A Game Of Thrones
Book One of A Song of Ice and Fire
By George R. R. Martin
PROLOGUE
"We should start back," Gared urged as the woods began to grow dark around them. "The wildlings are
dead."
"Do the dead frighten you?" Ser Waymar Royce asked with just the hint of a smile.
Gared did not rise to the bait. He was an old man, past fifty, and he had seen the lordlings come and go.
"Dead is dead," he said. "We have no business with the dead."
"Are they dead?" Royce asked softly. "What proof have we?"
"Will saw them," Gared said. "If he says they are dead, that's proof enough for me."
Will had known they would drag him into the quarrel sooner or later. He wished it had been later rather
than sooner. "My mother told me that dead men sing no songs," he put in.
"My wet nurse said the same thing, Will," Royce replied. "Never believe anything you hear at a woman's
tit. There are things to be learned even from the dead." His voice echoed, too loud in the twilit forest.

"We have a long ride before us," Gared pointed out. "Eight days, maybe nine. And night is falling."
Ser Waymar Royce glanced at the sky with disinterest. "It does that every day about this time. Are you
unmanned by the dark, Gared?"
Will could see the tightness around Gared's mouth, the barely sup
pressed anger in his eyes under the thick black hood of his cloak. Gared had spent forty years in the
Night's Watch, man and boy, and he was not accustomed to being made light of. Yet it was more than
that. Under the wounded pride, Will could sense something else in the older man. You could taste it; a
nervous tension that came perilous close to fear.
Will shared his unease. He had been four years on the Wall. The first time he had been sent beyond, all
the old stories had come rushing back, and his bowels had turned to water. He had laughed about it
afterward. He was a veteran of a hundred rangings by now, and the endless dark wilderness that the
southron called the haunted forest had no more terrors for him.
Until tonight. Something was different tonight. There was an edge to this darkness that made his hackles
rise. Nine days they had been riding, north and northwest and then north again, farther and farther from
the Wall, hard on the track of a band of wildling raiders. Each day had been worse than the day that had
come before it. Today was the worst of all. A cold wind was blowing out of the north, and it made the
trees rustle like living things. All day, Will had felt as though something were watching him, something
cold and implacable that loved him not. Gared had felt it too. Will wanted nothing so much as to ride
hellbent for the safety of the Wall, but that was not a feeling to share with your commander.
Especially not a commander like this one.
Ser Waymar Royce was the youngest son of an ancient house with too many heirs. He was a handsome
youth of eighteen, grey-eyed and graceful and slender as a knife. Mounted on his huge black destrier, the
knight towered above Will and Gared on their smaller garrons. He wore black leather boots, black
woolen pants, black moleskin gloves, and a fine supple coat of gleaming black ringmail over layers of
black wool and boiled leather. Ser Waymar had been a Sworn Brother of the Night's Watch for less than
half a year, but no one could say he had not prepared for his vocation. At least insofar as his wardrobe
was concerned.
His cloak was his crowning glory; sable, thick and black and soft as sin. "Bet he killed them all himself,
he did," Gared told the barracks over wine, "twisted their little heads off, our mighty warrior." They had
all shared the laugh.
It is hard to take orders from a man you laughed at in your cups, Will reflected as he sat shivering atop
his garron. Gared must have felt the same.
"Mormont said as we should track them, and we did," Gared said.
"They're dead. They shan't trouble us no more. There's hard riding before us. I don't like this weather. If
it snows, we could be a fortnight getting back, and snow's the best we can hope for. Ever seen an ice
storm, my lord?"
The lordling seemed not to hear him. He studied the deepening twilight in that half-bored, half-distracted

way he had. Will had ridden with the knight long enough to understand that it was best not to interrupt
him when he looked like that. "Tell me again what you saw, Will. All the details. Leave nothing out."
Will had been a hunter before he joined the Night's Watch. Well, a poacher in truth. Mallister freeriders
had caught him red-handed in the Mallisters' own woods, skinning one of the Mallisters' own bucks, and
it had been a choice of putting on the black or losing a hand. No one could move through the woods as
silent as Will, and it had not taken the black brothers long to discover his talent.
"The camp is two miles farther on, over that ridge, hard beside a stream," Will said. "I got close as I
dared. There's eight of them, men and women both. No children I could see. They put up a lean-to
against the rock. The snow's pretty well covered it now, but I could still make it out. No fire burning, but
the firepit was still plain as day. No one moving. I watched a long time. No living man ever lay so still."
"Did you see any blood?"
"Well, no," Will admitted.
"Did you see any weapons?"
"Some swords, a few bows. One man had an axe. Heavy-looking, double-bladed, a cruel piece of iron.
It was on the ground beside him, right by his hand."
"Did you make note of the position of the bodies?"
Will shrugged. "A couple are sitting up against the rock. Most of them on the ground. Fallen, like."
"Or sleeping," Royce suggested.
"Fallen," Will insisted. "There's one woman up an ironwood, halfhid in the branches. A far-eyes." He
smiled thinly. "I took care she never saw me. When I got closer, I saw that she wasn't moving neither."
Despite himself, he shivered.
"You have a chill?" Royce asked.
"Some," Will muttered. "The wind, m'lord."
The young knight turned back to his grizzled man-at-arms. Frostfallen leaves whispered past them, and
Royce's destrier moved restlessly. "What do you think might have killed these men, Gared?" Ser
Waymar asked casually. He adjusted the drape of his long sable cloak.
"It was the cold," Gared said with iron certainty. "I saw men freeze
last winter, and the one before, when I was half a boy. Everyone talks about snows forty foot deep, and
how the ice wind comes howling out of the north, but the real enemy is the cold. It steals up on you
quieter than Will, and at first you shiver and your teeth chatter and you stamp your feet and dream of
mulled wine and nice hot fires. It burns, it does. Nothing burns like the cold. But only for a while. Then it
gets inside you and starts to fill you up, and after a while you don't have the strength to fight it. It's easier
just to sit down or go to sleep. They say you don't feel any pain toward the end. First you go weak and
drowsy, and everything starts to fade, and then it's like sinking into a sea of warm milk. Peaceful, like."
"Such eloquence, Gared," Ser Waymar observed. "I never suspected you had it in you."

"I've had the cold in me too, lordling." Gared pulled back his hood, giving Ser Waymar a good long look
at the stumps where his ears had been. "Two ears, three toes, and the little finger off my left hand. I got
off light. We found my brother frozen at his watch, with a smile on his face."
Ser Waymar shrugged. "You ought dress more warmly, Gared."
Gared glared at the lordling, the scars around his ear holes flushed red with anger where Maester
Aemon had cut the ears away. "We'll see how warm you can dress when the winter comes." He pulled
up his hood and hunched over his garron, silent and sullen.
"If Gared said it was the cold . . ." Will began.
"Have you drawn any watches this past week, Will?"
"Yes, m'lord." There never was a week when he did not draw a dozen bloody watches. What was the
man driving at?
"And how did you find the Wall?"
"Weeping," Will said, frowning. He saw it clear enough, now that the lordling had pointed it out. "They
couldn't have froze. Not if the Wall was weeping. It wasn't cold enough."
Royce nodded. "Bright lad. We've had a few light frosts this past week, and a quick flurry of snow now
and then, but surely no cold fierce enough to kill eight grown men. Men clad in fur and leather, let me
remind you, with shelter near at hand, and the means of making fire." The knight's smile was cocksure.
"Will, lead us there. I would see these dead men for myself."
And then there was nothing to be done for it. The order had been given, and honor bound them to obey.
Will went in front, his shaggy little garron picking the way carefully through the undergrowth. A light
snow had fallen the night before, and there were stones and roots and hidden sinks lying just under its
crust, waiting for the careless and the unwary. Ser Waymar Royce came next, his great black destrier
snorting impatiently. The warhorse was the wrong mount for ranging, but try and tell that to the lordling.
Gared brought up the rear. The old man-at-arms muttered to himself as he rode.
Twilight deepened. The cloudless sky turned a deep purple, the color of an old bruise, then faded to
black. The stars began to come out. A half-moon rose. Will was grateful for the light.
"We can make a better pace than this, surely," Royce said when the moon was full risen.
"Not with this horse," Will said. Fear had made him insolent. "Perhaps my lord would care to take the
lead?"
Ser Waymar Royce did not deign to reply.
Somewhere off in the wood a wolf howled.
Will pulled his garron over beneath an ancient gnarled ironwood and dismounted.

"Why are you stopping?" Ser Waymar asked.
"Best go the rest of the way on foot, m'lord. It's just over that ridge."
Royce paused a moment, staring off into the distance, his face reflective. A cold wind whispered through
the trees. His great sable cloak stirred behind like something half-alive.
"There's something wrong here," Gared muttered.
The young knight gave him a disdainful smile. "Is there?"
"Can't you feel it?" Gared asked. "Listen to the darkness."
Will could feel it. Four years in the Night's Watch, and he had never been so afraid. What was it?
"Wind. Trees rustling. A wolf. Which sound is it that unmans you so, Gared?" When Gared did not
answer, Royce slid gracefully from his saddle. He tied the destrier securely to a low-hanging limb, well
away from the other horses, and drew his longsword from its sheath. Jewels glittered in its hilt, and the
moonlight ran down the shining steel. It was a splendid weapon, castle-forged, and new-made from the
look of it. Will doubted it had ever been swung in anger.
"The trees press close here," Will warned. "That sword will tangle you up, m1ord. Better a knife."
"If I need instruction, I will ask for it," the young lord said. "Gared, stay here. Guard the horses."
Gared dismounted. "We need a fire. I'll see to it."
"How big a fool are you, old man? If there are enemies in this wood, a fire is the last thing we want."
"There's some enemies a fire will keep away," Gared said. "Bears and direwolves and ... and other
things . . ."
Ser Waymar's mouth became a hard line. "No fire."
Gared's hood shadowed his face, but Will could see the hard glitter in his eyes as he stared at the knight.
For a moment he was afraid the older man would go for his sword. It was a short, ugly thing, its grip
discolored by sweat, its edge nicked from hard use, but Will would not have given an iron bob for the
lordling's life if Gared pulled it from its scabbard.
Finally Gared looked down. "No fire," he muttered, low under his breath.
Royce took it for acquiescence and turned away. "Lead on," he said to Will.
Will threaded their way through a thicket, then started up the slope to the low ridge where he had found
his vantage point under a sentinel tree. Under the thin crust of snow, the ground was damp and muddy,
slick footing, with rocks and hidden roots to trip you up. Will made no sound as he climbed. Behind him,
he heard the soft metallic slither of the lordling's ringmail, the rustle of leaves, and muttered curses as
reaching branches grabbed at his longsword and tugged on his splendid sable cloak.
The great sentinel was right there at the top of the ridge, where Will had known it would be, its lowest
branches a bare foot off the ground. Will slid in underneath, flat on his belly in the snow and the mud, and

looked down on the empty clearing below.
His heart stopped in his chest. For a moment he dared not breathe. Moonlight shone down on the
clearing, the ashes of the firepit, the snow-covered lean-to, the great rock, the little half-frozen stream.
Everything was just as it had been a few hours ago.
They were gone. All the bodies were gone.
"Gods!" he heard behind him. A sword slashed at a branch as Ser Waymar Royce gained the ridge. He
stood there beside the sentinel, longsword in hand, his cloak billowing behind him as the wind came up,
outlined nobly against the stars for all to see.
"Get down!" Will whispered urgently. "Something's wrong."
Royce did not move. He looked down at the empty clearing and laughed. "Your dead men seem to have
moved camp, Will."
Will's voice abandoned him. He groped for words that did not come. It was not possible. His eyes
swept back and forth over the abandoned campsite, stopped on the axe. A huge double-bladed
battle-axe, still lying where he had seen it last, untouched. A valuable weapon . . .
"On your feet, Will," Ser Waymar commanded. "There's no one here. I won't have you hiding under a
bush."
Reluctantly, Will obeyed.
Ser Waymar looked him over with open disapproval. "I am not going back to Castle Black a failure on
my first ranging. We will find these men." He glanced around. "Up the tree. Be quick about it. Look for a
fire."
Will turned away, wordless. There was no use to argue. The wind was moving. It cut right through him.
He went to the tree, a vaulting grey-green sentinel, and began to climb. Soon his hands were sticky with
sap, and he was lost among the needles. Fear filled his gut like a meal he could not digest. He whispered
a prayer to the nameless gods of the wood, and slipped his dirk free of its sheath. He put it between his
teeth to keep both hands free for climbing. The taste of cold iron in his mouth gave him comfort.
Down below, the lordling called out suddenly, "Who goes there?" Will heard uncertainty in the challenge.
He stopped climbing; he listened; he watched.
The woods gave answer: the rustle of leaves, the icy rush of the stream, a distant hoot of a snow owl.
The Others made no sound.
Will saw movement from the corner of his eye. Pale shapes gliding through the wood. He turned his
head, glimpsed a white shadow in the darkness. Then it was gone. Branches stirred gently in the wind,
scratching at one another with wooden fingers. Will opened his mouth to call down a warning, and the
words seemed to freeze in his throat. Perhaps he was wrong. Perhaps it had only been a bird, a reflection
on the snow, some trick of the moonlight. What had he seen, after all?
"Will, where are you?" Ser Waymar called up. "Can you see anything?" He was turning in a slow circle,
suddenly wary, his sword in hand. He must have felt them, as Will felt them. There was nothing to see.

"Answer me! Why is it so cold?"
It was cold. Shivering, Will clung more tightly to his perch. His face pressed hard against the trunk of the
sentinel. He could feel the sweet, sticky sap on his cheek.
A shadow emerged from the dark of the wood. It stood in front of Royce. Tall, it was, and gaunt and
hard as old bones, with flesh pale as milk. Its armor seemed to change color as it moved; here it was
white as new-fallen snow, there black as shadow, everywhere dappled with the deep grey-green of the
trees. The patterns ran like moonlight on water with every step it took.
Will heard the breath go out of Ser Waymar Royce in a long hiss.
"Come no farther," the lordling warned. His voice cracked like a boy's. He threw the long sable cloak
back over his shoulders, to free his arms for battle, and took his sword in both hands. The wind had
stopped. It was very cold.
The Other slid forward on silent feet. In its hand was a longsword like none that Will had ever seen. No
human metal had gone into the forging of that blade. It was alive with moonlight, translucent, a shard of
crystal so thin that it seemed almost to vanish when seen edge-on. There was a faint blue shimmer to the
thing, a ghost-light that played around its edges, and somehow Will knew it was sharper than any razor.
Ser Waymar met him bravely. "Dance with me then." He lifted his sword high over his head, defiant. His
hands trembled from the weight of it, or perhaps from the cold. Yet in that moment, Will thought, he was
a boy no longer, but a man of the Night's Watch.
The Other halted. Will saw its eyes; blue, deeper and bluer than any human eyes, a blue that burned like
ice. They fixed on the longsword trembling on high, watched the moonlight running cold along the metal.
For a heartbeat he dared to hope.
They emerged silently from the shadows, twins to the first. Three of them . . . four . . . five . . . Ser
Waymar may have felt the cold that came with them, but he never saw them, never heard them. Will had
to call out. It was his duty. And his death, if he did. He shivered, and hugged the tree, and kept the
silence.
The pale sword came shivering through the air.
Ser Waymar met it with steel. When the blades met, there was no ring of metal on metal; only a high,
thin sound at the edge of hearing, like an animal screaming in pain. Royce checked a second blow, and a
third, then fell back a step. Another flurry of blows, and he fell back again.
Behind him, to right, to left, all around him, the watchers stood patient, faceless, silent, the shifting
patterns of their delicate armor making them all but invisible in the wood. Yet they made no move to
interfere.
Again and again the swords met, until Will wanted to cover his ears against the strange anguished
keening of their clash. Ser Waymar was panting from the effort now, his breath steaming in the moonlight.
His blade was white with frost; the Other's danced with pale blue light.
Then Royce's parry came a beat too late. The pale sword bit through the ringmail beneath his arm. The
young lord cried out in pain. Blood welled between the rings. It steamed in the cold, and the droplets
seemed red as fire where they touched the snow. Ser

Waymar's fingers brushed his side. His moleskin glove came away soaked with red.
The Other said something in a language that Will did not know; his voice was like the cracking of ice on
a winter lake, and the words were mocking.
Ser Waymar Royce found his fury. "For Robert!" he shouted, and he came up snarling, lifting the
frost-covered longsword with both hands and swinging it around in a flat sidearm slash with all his weight
behind it. The Other's parry was almost lazy.
When the blades touched, the steel shattered.
A scream echoed through the forest night, and the longsword shivered into a hundred brittle pieces, the
shards scattering like a rain of needles. Royce went to his knees, shrieking, and covered his eyes. Blood
welled between his fingers.
The watchers moved forward together, as if some signal had been given. Swords rose and fell, all in a
deathly silence. It was cold butchery. The pale blades sliced through ringmail as if it were silk. Will closed
his eyes. Far beneath him, he heard their voices and laughter sharp as icicles.
When he found the courage to look again, a long time had passed, and the ridge below was empty.
He stayed in the tree, scarce daring to breathe, while the moon crept slowly across the black sky.
Finally, his muscles cramping and his fingers numb with cold, he climbed down.
Royce's body lay facedown in the snow, one arm outflung. The thick sable cloak had been slashed in a
dozen places. Lying dead like that, you saw how young he was. A boy.
He found what was left of the sword a few feet away, the end splintered and twisted like a tree struck
by lightning. Will knelt, looked around warily, and snatched it up. The broken sword would be his proof.
Gared would know what to make of it, and if not him, then surely that old bear Mormont or Maester
Aemon. Would Gared still be waiting with the horses? He had to hurry.
Will rose. Ser Waymar Royce stood over him.
His fine clothes were a tatter, his face a ruin. A shard from his sword transfixed the blind white pupil of
his left eye.
The right eye was open. The pupil burned blue. It saw.
The broken sword fell from nerveless fingers. Will closed his eyes to pray. Long, elegant hands brushed
his cheek, then tightened around his throat. They were gloved in the finest moleskin and sticky with
blood, yet the touch was icy cold.
BRAN
The morning had dawned clear and cold, with a crispness that hinted at the end of summer. They set
forth at daybreak to see a man beheaded, twenty in all, and Bran rode among them, nervous with
excitement. This was the first time he had been deemed old enough to go with his lord father and his

brothers to see the king's justice done. It was the ninth year of summer, and the seventh of Bran's life.
The man had been taken outside a small holdfast in the hills. Robb thought he was a wildling, his sword
sworn to Mance Rayder, the Kingbeyond-the-Wall. It made Bran's skin prickle to think of it. He
remembered the hearth tales Old Nan told them. The wildlings were cruel men, she said, slavers and
slayers and thieves. They consorted with giants and ghouls, stole girl children in the dead of night, and
drank blood from polished horns. And their women lay with the Others in the Long Night to sire terrible
half-human children.
But the man they found bound hand and foot to the holdfast wall awaiting the king's justice was old and
scrawny, not much taller than Robb. He had lost both ears and a finger to frostbite, and he dressed all in
black, the same as a brother of the Night's Watch, except that his furs were ragged and greasy.
The breath of man and horse mingled, steaming, in the cold morning air as his lord father had the man cut
down from the wall and
dragged before them. Robb and Jon sat tall and still on their horses, with Bran between them on his
pony, trying to seem older than seven, trying to pretend that he'd seen all this before. A faint wind blew
through the holdfast gate. Over their heads flapped the banner of the Starks of Winterfell: a grey direwolf
racing across an ice-white field.
Bran's father sat solemnly on his horse, long brown hair stirring in the wind. His closely trimmed beard
was shot with white, making him look older than his thirty-five years. He had a grim cast to his grey eyes
this day, and he seemed not at all the man who would sit before the fire in the evening and talk softly of
the age of heroes and the children of the forest. He had taken off Father's face, Bran thought, and
donned the face of Lord Stark of Winterfell.
There were questions asked and answers given there in the chill of morning, but afterward Bran could
not recall much of what had been said. Finally his lord father gave a command, and two of his guardsmen
dragged the ragged man to the ironwood stump in the center of the square. They forced his head down
onto the hard black wood. Lord Eddard Stark dismounted and his ward Theon Greyjoy brought forth
the sword. "Ice," that sword was called. It was as wide across as a man's hand, and taller even than
Robb. The blade was Valyrian steel, spell-forged and dark as smoke. Nothing held an edge like Valyrian
steel.
His father peeled off his gloves and handed them to Jory Cassel, the captain of his household guard. He
took hold of Ice with both hands and said, "In the name of Robert of the House Baratheon, the First of
his Name, King of the Andals and the Rhoynar and the First Men, Lord of the Seven Kingdoms and
Protector of the Realm, by the word of Eddard of the House Stark, Lord of Winterfell and Warden of
the North, I do sentence you to die." He lifted the greatsword high above his head.
Bran's bastard brother Jon Snow moved closer. "Keep the pony well in hand," he whispered. "And
don't look away. Father will know if you do."
Bran kept his pony well in hand, and did not look away.
His father took off the man's head with a single sure stroke. Blood sprayed out across the snow, as red
as surnmerwine. One of the horses reared and had to be restrained to keep from bolting. Bran could not
take his eyes off the blood. The snows around the stump drank it eagerly, reddening as he watched.
The head bounced off a thick root and rolled. It came up near Greyjoy's feet. Theon was a lean, dark

youth of nineteen who found
everything amusing. He laughed, put his boot on the head, and kicked it away.
"Ass," Jon muttered, low enough so Greyjoy did not hear. He put a hand on Bran's shoulder, and Bran
looked over at his bastard brother. "You did well," Jon told him solemnly. Jon was fourteen, an old hand
at justice.
It seemed colder on the long ride back to Winterfell, though the wind had died by then and the sun was
higher in the sky. Bran rode with his brothers, well ahead of the main party, his pony struggling hard to
keep up with their horses.
"The deserter died bravely," Robb said. He was big and broad and growing every day, with his mother's
coloring, the fair skin, red-brown hair, and blue eyes of the Tullys of Riverrun. "He had courage, at the
least."
"No," Jon Snow said quietly. "It was not courage. This one was dead of fear. You could see it in his
eyes, Stark." Jon's eyes were a grey so dark they seemed almost black, but there was little they did not
see. He was of an age with Robb, but they did not look alike. Jon was slender where Robb was
muscular, dark where Robb was fair, graceful and quick where his half brother was strong and fast.
Robb was not impressed. "The Others take his eyes," he swore. "He died well. Race you to the bridge?"
"Done," Jon said, kicking his horse forward. Robb cursed and followed, and they galloped off down the
trail, Robb laughing and hooting, Jon silent and intent. The hooves of their horses kicked up showers of
snow as they went.
Bran did not try to follow. His pony could not keep up. He had seen the ragged man's eyes, and he was
thinking of them now. After a while, the sound of Robb's laughter receded, and the woods grew silent
again.
So deep in thought was he that he never heard the rest of the party until his father moved up to ride
beside him. "Are you well, Bran?" he asked, not unkindly.
"Yes, Father," Bran told him. He looked up. Wrapped in his furs and leathers, mounted on his great
warhorse, his lord father loomed over him like a giant. "Robb says the man died bravely, but Jon says he
was afraid."
"What do you think?" his father asked.
Bran thought about it. "Can a man still be brave if he's afraid?"
"That is the only time a man can be brave," his father told him. "Do you understand why I did it?"
"He was a wildling," Bran said. "They carry off women and sell them to the Others."
His lord father smiled. "Old Nan has been telling you stories again. In truth, the man was an oathbreaker,
a deserter from the Night's Watch. No man is more dangerous. The deserter knows his life is forfeit if he
is taken, so he will not flinch from any crime, no matter how vile. But you mistake me. The question was
not why the man had to die, but why I must do it."

Bran had no answer for that. "King Robert has a headsman," he said, uncertainly.
"He does," his father admitted. "As did the Targaryen kings before him. Yet our way is the older way.
The blood of the First Men still flows in the veins of the Starks, and we hold to the belief that the man
who passes the sentence should swing the sword. If you would take a man's life, you owe it to him to
look into his eyes and hear his final words. And if you cannot bear to do that, then perhaps the man does
not deserve to die.
"One day, Bran, you will be Robb's bannerman, holding a keep of your own for your brother and your
king, and justice will fall to you. When that day comes, you must take no pleasure in the task, but neither
must you look away. A ruler who hides behind paid executioners soon forgets what death is."
That was when Jon reappeared on the crest of the hill before them. He waved and shouted down at
them. "Father, Bran, come quickly, see what Robb has found!" Then he was gone again.
Jory rode up beside them. "Trouble, my lord?"
"Beyond a doubt," his lord father said. "Come, let us see what mischief my sons have rooted out now."
He sent his horse into a trot. Jory and Bran and the rest came after.
They found Robb on the riverbank north of the bridge, with Jon still mounted beside him. The late
summer snows had been heavy this moonturn. Robb stood knee-deep in white, his hood pulled back so
the sun shone in his hair. He was cradling something in his arm, while the boys talked in hushed, excited
voices.
The riders picked their way carefully through the drifts, groping for solid footing on the hidden, uneven
ground. Jory Cassel and Theon Greyjoy were the first to reach the boys. Greyjoy was laughing and
joking as he rode. Bran heard the breath go out of him. "Gods!" he exclaimed, struggling to keep control
of his horse as he reached for his sword.
Jory's sword was already out. "Robb, get away from it!" he called as his horse reared under him.
Robb grinned and looked up from the bundle in his arms. "She can't hurt you," he said. "She's dead,
Jory."
Bran was afire with curiosity by then. He would have spurred the pony faster, but his father made them
dismount beside the bridge and approach on foot. Bran jumped off and ran.
By then Jon, Jory, and Theon Greyjoy had all dismounted as well. "What in the seven hells is it?"
Greyjoy was saying.
"A wolf," Robb told him.
"A freak," Greyjoy said. "Look at the size of it."
Bran's heart was thumping in his chest as he pushed through a waist-high drift to his brothers' side.
Half-buried in bloodstained snow, a huge dark shape slumped in death. Ice had formed in its shaggy
grey fur, and the faint smell of corruption clung to it like a woman's perfume. Bran glimpsed blind eyes
crawling with maggots, a wide mouth full of yellowed teeth. But it was the size of it that made him gasp. It
was bigger than his pony, twice the size of the largest hound in his father's kennel.

"It's no freak," Jon said calmly. "That's a direwolf. They grow larger than the other kind."
Theon Greyjoy said, "There's not been a direwolf sighted south of the Wall in two hundred years."
"I see one now," Jon replied.
Bran tore his eyes away from the monster. That was when he noticed the bundle in Robb's arms. He
gave a cry of delight and moved closer. The pup was a tiny ball of grey-black fur, its eyes still closed. It
nuzzled blindly against Robb's chest as he cradled it, searching for milk among his leathers, making a sad
little whimpery sound. Bran reached out hesitantly. "Go on," Robb told him. "You can touch him."
Bran gave the pup a quick nervous stroke, then turned as Jon said, "Here you go." His half brother put a
second pup into his arms. "There are five of them." Bran sat down in the snow and hugged the wolf pup
to his face. Its fur was soft and warm against his cheek.
"Direwolves loose in the realm, after so many years," muttered Hullen, the master of horse. "I like it not."
"It is a sign," Jory said.
Father frowned. "This is only a dead animal, Jory," he said. Yet he seemed troubled. Snow crunched
under his boots as he moved around the body. "Do we know what killed her?"
"There's something in the throat," Robb told him, proud to have found the answer before his father even
asked. "There, just under the jaw.,,
His father knelt and groped under the beast's head with his hand.
He gave a yank and held it up for all to see. A foot of shattered antler, tines snapped off, all wet with
blood.
A sudden silence descended over the party. The men looked at the antler uneasily, and no one dared to
speak. Even Bran could sense their fear, though he did not understand.
His father tossed the antler to the side and cleansed his hands in the snow. "I'm surprised she lived long
enough to whelp," he said. His voice broke the spell.
"Maybe she didn't," Jory said. "I've heard tales . . . maybe the bitch was already dead when the pups
came."
"Born with the dead," another man put in. "Worse luck."
"No matter," said Hullen. "They be dead soon enough too."
Bran gave a wordless cry of dismay.
"The sooner the better," Theon Greyjoy agreed. He drew his sword. "Give the beast here, Bran."
The little thing squirmed against him, as if it heard and understood. "No!" Bran cried out fiercely. "It's
mine."

"Put away your sword, Greyjoy," Robb said. For a moment he sounded as commanding as their father,
like the lord he would someday be. "We will keep these pups."
"You cannot do that, boy," said Harwin, who was Hullen's son.
"It be a mercy to kill them," Hullen said.
Bran looked to his lord father for rescue, but got only a frown, a furrowed brow. "Hullen speaks truly,
son. Better a swift death than a hard one from cold and starvation."
"No!" He could feel tears welling in his eyes, and he looked away. He did not want to cry in front of his
father.
Robb resisted stubbornly. "Ser Rodrik's red bitch whelped again last week," he said. "It was a small
litter, only two live pups. She'll have milk enough."
"She'll rip them apart when they try to nurse."
"Lord Stark," Jon said. It was strange to hear him call Father that, so formal. Bran looked at him with
desperate hope. "There are five pups," he told Father. "Three male, two female."
"What of it, Jon?"
"You have five trueborn children," Jon said. "Three sons, two daughters. The direwolf is the sigil of your
House. Your children were meant to have these pups, my lord."
Bran saw his father's face change, saw the other men exchange glances. He loved Jon with all his heart
at that moment. Even at seven, Bran understood what his brother had done. The count had come right
only because Jon had omitted himself. He had included the girls,
included even Rickon, the baby, but not the bastard who bore the surname Snow, the name that custom
decreed be given to all those in the north unlucky enough to be born with no name of their own.
Their father understood as well. "You want no pup for yourself, Jon?" he asked softly.
"The direwolf graces the banners of House Stark," Jon pointed out. "I am no Stark, Father."
Their lord father regarded Jon thoughtfully. Robb rushed into the silence he left. "I will nurse him myself,
Father," he promised. "I will soak a towel with warm milk, and give him suck from that."
"Me too!" Bran echoed.
The lord weighed his sons long and carefully with his eyes. "Easy to say, and harder to do. I will not
have you wasting the servants' time with this. If you want these pups, you will feed them yourselves. Is
that understood?"
Bran nodded eagerly. The pup squirmed in his grasp, licked at his face with a warm tongue.
"You must train them as well," their father said. "You must train them. The kennelmaster will have nothing
to do with these monsters, I promise you that. And the gods help you if you neglect them, or brutalize
them, or train them badly. These are not dogs to beg for treats and slink off at a kick. A direwolf will rip

a man's arm off his shoulder as easily as a dog will kill a rat. Are you sure you want this?"
"Yes, Father," Bran said.
"Yes," Robb agreed.
"The pups may die anyway, despite all you do."
"They won't die," Robb said. "We won't let them die."
"Keep them, then. Jory, Desmond, gather up the other pups. It's time we were back to Winterfell."
It was not until they were mounted and on their way that Bran allowed himself to taste the sweet air of
victory. By then, his pup was snuggled inside his leathers, warm against him, safe for the long ride home.
Bran was wondering what to name him.
Halfway across the bridge, Jon pulled up suddenly.
"What is it, Jon?" their lord father asked.
"Can't you hear it?"
Bran could hear the wind in the trees, the clatter of their hooves on the ironwood planks, the whimpering
of his hungry pup, but Jon was listening to something else.
"There," Jon said. He swung his horse around and galloped back across the bridge. They watched him
dismount where the direwolf lay
dead in the snow, watched him kneel. A moment later he was riding back to them, smiling.
"He must have crawled away from the others," Jon said.
"Or been driven away," their father said, looking at the sixth pup. His fur was white, where the rest of the
litter was grey. His eyes were as red as the blood of the ragged man who had died that morning. Bran
thought it curious that this pup alone would have opened his eyes while the others were still blind.
"An albino," Theon Greyjoy said with wry amusement. "This one will die even faster than the others."
Jon Snow gave his father's ward a long, chilling look. "I think not, Greyjoy," he said. "This one belongs
to me."
CATELYN
Catelyn had never liked this godswood.
She had been born a Tully, at Riverrun far to the south, on the Red Fork of the Trident. The godswood
there was a garden, bright and airy, where tall redwoods spread dappled shadows across tinkling
streams, birds sang from hidden nests, and the air was spicy with the scent of flowers.

The gods of Winterfell kept a different sort of wood. It was a dark, primal place, three acres of old
forest untouched for ten thousand years as the gloomy castle rose around it. It smelled of moist earth and
decay. No redwoods grew here. This was a wood of stubborn sentinel trees armored in grey-green
needles, of mighty oaks, of ironwoods as old as the realm itself. Here thick black trunks crowded close
together while twisted branches wove a dense canopy overhead and misshappen roots wrestled beneath
the soil. This was a place of deep silence and brooding shadows, and the gods who lived here had no
names.
But she knew she would find her husband here tonight. Whenever he took a man's life, afterward he
would seek the quiet of the godswood.
Catelyn had been anointed with the seven oils and named in the rainbow of light that filled the sept of
Riverrun. She was of the Faith, like her father and grandfather and his father before him. Her gods had
names, and their faces were as familiar as the faces of her parents.
Worship was a septon with a censer, the smell of incense, a seven-sided crystal alive with light, voices
raised in song. The Tullys kept a godswood, as all the great houses did, but it was only a place to walk
or read or lie in the sun. Worship was for the sept.
For her sake, Ned had built a small sept where she might sing to the seven faces of god, but the blood of
the First Men still flowed in the veins of the Starks, and his own gods were the old ones, the nameless,
faceless gods of the greenwood they shared with the vanished children of the forest.
At the center of the grove an ancient weirwood brooded over a small pool where the waters were black
and cold. "The heart tree," Ned called it. The weirwood's bark was white as bone, its leaves dark red,
like a thousand bloodstained hands. A face had been carved in the trunk of the great tree, its features
long and melancholy, the deep-cut eyes red with dried sap and strangely watchful. They were old, those
eyes; older than Winterfell itself. They had seen Brandon the Builder set the first stone, if the tales were
true; they had watched the castle's granite walls rise around them. It was said that the children of the
forest had carved the faces in the trees during the dawn centuries before the coming of the First Men
across the narrow sea.
In the south the last weirwoods had been cut down or burned out a thousand years ago, except on the
Isle of Faces where the green men kept their silent watch. Up here it was different. Here every castle had
its godswood, and every godswood had its heart tree, and every heart tree its face.
Catelyn found her husband beneath the weirwood, seated on a moss-covered stone. The greatsword
Ice was across his lap, and he was cleaning the blade in those waters black as night. A thousand years of
humus lay thick upon the godswood floor, swallowing the sound of her feet, but the red eyes of the
weirwood seemed to follow her as she came. "Ned," she called softly.
He lifted his head to look at her. "Catelyn," he said. His voice was distant and formal. "Where are the
children?"
He would always ask her that. "In the kitchen, arguing about names for the wolf pups." She spread her
cloak on the forest floor and sat beside the pool, her back to the weirwood. She could feel the eyes
watching her, but she did her best to ignore them. "Arya is already in love, and Sansa is charmed and
gracious, but Rickon is not quite sure."
"Is he afraid?" Ned asked.

"A little," she admitted. "He is only three."
Ned frowned. "He must learn to face his fears. He will not be three forever. And winter is coming."
"Yes," Catelyn agreed. The words gave her a chill, as they always did. The Stark words. Every noble
house had its words. Family mottoes, touchstones, prayers of sorts, they boasted of honor and glory,
promised loyalty and truth, swore faith and courage. All but the Starks. Winter is coming, said the Stark
words. Not for the first time, she reflected on what a strange people these northerners; were.
"The man died well, I'll give him that," Ned said. He had a swatch of oiled leather in one hand. He ran it
lightly up the greatsword as he spoke, polishing the metal to a dark glow. "I was glad for Bran's sake.
You would have been proud of Bran."
"I am always proud of Bran," Catelyn replied, watching the sword as he stroked it. She could see the
rippling deep within the steel, where the metal had been folded back on itself a hundred times in the
forging. Catelyn had no love for swords, but she could not deny that Ice had its own beauty. It had been
forged in Valyria, before the Doom had come to the old Freehold, when the ironsmiths had worked their
metal with spells as well as hammers. Four hundred years old it was, and as sharp as the day it was
forged. The name it bore was older still, a legacy from the age of heroes, when the Starks were Kings in
the North.
"He was the fourth this year," Ned said grimly. "The poor man was half-mad. Something had put a fear
in him so deep that my words could not reach him." He sighed. "Ben writes that the strength of the
Night's Watch is down below a thousand. It's not only desertions. They are losing men on rangings as
well."
"Is it the wildlings?" she asked.
"Who else?" Ned lifted Ice, looked down the cool steel length of it. "And it will only grow worse. The
day may come when I will have no choice but to call the banners and ride north to deal with this
Kingbeyond-the-Wall for good and all."
"Beyond the Wall?" The thought made Catelyn shudder.
Ned saw the dread on her face. "Mance Rayder is nothing for us to fear."
"There are darker things beyond the Wall." She glanced behind her at the heart tree, the pale bark and
red eyes, watching, listening, thinking its long slow thoughts.
His smile was gentle. "You listen to too many of Old Nan's stories. The Others are as dead as the
children of the forest, gone eight thousand years. Maester Luwin will tell you they never lived at all. No
living man has ever seen one."
"Until this morning, no living man had ever seen a direwolf either," Catelyn reminded him.
"I ought to know better than to argue with a Tully," he said with a rueful smile. He slid Ice back into its
sheath. "You did not come here to tell me crib tales. I know how little you like this place. What is it, my
lady?"
Catelyn took her husband's hand. "There was grievous news today, my lord. I did not wish to trouble
you until you had cleansed yourself." There was no way to soften the blow, so she told him straight. "I am


so sorry, my love. Jon Arryn is dead."
His eyes found hers, and she could see how hard it took him, as she had known it would. In his youth,
Ned had fostered at the Eyrie, and the childless Lord Arryn had become a second father to him and his
fellow ward, Robert Baratheon. When the Mad King Aerys 11 Targaryen had demanded their heads,
the Lord of the Eyrie had raised his moon-and-falcon banners in revolt rather than give up those he had
pledged to protect.
And one day fifteen years ago, this second father had become a brother as well, as he and Ned stood
together in the sept at Riverrun to wed two sisters, the daughters of Lord Hoster Tully.
"Jon . . ." he said. "Is this news certain?"
"It was the king's seal, and the letter is in Robert's own hand. I saved it for you. He said Lord Arryn was
taken quickly. Even Maester Pycelle was helpless, but he brought the milk of the poppy, so Jon did not
linger long in pain."
"That is some small mercy, I suppose," he said. She could see the grief on his face, but even then he
thought first of her. "Your sister," he said. "And Jon's boy. What word of them?"
"The message said only that they were well, and had returned to the Eyrie," Catelyn said. "I wish they
had gone to Riverrun instead. The Eyrie is high and lonely, and it was ever her husband's place, not hers.
Lord Jon's memory will haunt each stone. I know my sister. She needs the comfort of family and friends
around her."
"Your uncle waits in the Vale, does he not? Jon named him Knight of the Gate, I'd heard."
Catelyn nodded. "Brynden will do what he can for her, and for the boy. That is some comfort, but still . .
."
"Go to her," Ned urged. "Take the children. Fill her halls with noise and shouts and laughter. That boy of
hers needs other children about him, and Lysa should not be alone in her grief."
"Would that I could," Catelyn said. "The letter had other tidings. The king is riding to Winterfell to seek
you out."
It took Ned a moment to comprehend her words, but when the
understanding came, the darkness left his eyes. "Robert is coming here?" When she nodded, a smile
broke across his face.
Catelyn wished she could share his joy. But she had heard the talk in the yards; a direwolf dead in the
snow, a broken antler in its throat. Dread coiled within her like a snake, but she forced herself to smile at
this man she loved, this man who put no faith in signs. "I knew that would please you," she said. "We
should send word to your brother on the Wall."
"Yes, of course," he agreed. "Ben will want to be here. I shall tell Maester Luwin to send his swiftest
bird." Ned rose and pulled her to her feet. "Damnation, how many years has it been? And he gives us no
more notice than this? How many in his party, did the message say?"
"I should think a hundred knights, at the least, with all their retainers, and half again as many freeriders.


Cersei and the children travel with them."
"Robert will keep an easy pace for their sakes," he said. "It is just as well. That will give us more time to
prepare."
"The queen's brothers are also in the party," she told him.
Ned grimaced at that. There was small love between him and the queen's family, Catelyn knew. The
Lannisters of Casterly Rock had come late to Robert's cause, when victory was all but certain, and he
had never forgiven them. "Well, if the price for Robert's company is an infestation of Lannisters, so be it.
It sounds as though Robert is bringing half his court."
"Where the king goes, the realm follows," she said.
"It will be good to see the children. The youngest was still sucking at the Lannister woman's teat the last
time I saw him. He must be, what, five by now?"
"Prince Tornmen is seven," she told him. "The same age as Bran. Please, Ned, guard your tongue. The
Lannister woman is our queen, and her pride is said to grow with every passing year."
Ned squeezed her hand. "There must be a feast, of course, with singers, and Robert will want to hunt. I
shall send Jory south with an honor guard to meet them on the kingsroad and escort them back. Gods,
how are we going to feed them all? On his way already, you said? Damn the man. Damn his royal hide."
DAENERYS
Her brother held the gown up for her inspection. "This is beauty. Touch it. Go on. Caress the fabric."
Dany touched it. The cloth was so smooth that it seemed to run through her fingers like water. She could
not remember ever wearing anything so soft. It frightened her. She pulled her hand away. "Is it really
mine?"
"A gift from the Magister Illyrio," Viserys said, smiling. Her brother was in a high mood tonight. "The
color will bring out the violet in your eyes. And you shall have gold as well, and jewels of all sorts. Illyrio
has promised. Tonight you must look like a princess."
A princess, Dany thought. She had forgotten what that was like. Perhaps she had never really known.
"Why does he give us so much?" she asked. "What does he want from us?" For nigh on half a year, they
had lived in the magister's house, eating his food, pampered by his servants. Dany was thirteen, old
enough to know that such gifts seldom come without their price, here in the free city of Pentos.
"Illyrio is no fool," Viserys said. He was a gaunt young man with nervous hands and a feverish look in his
pale lilac eyes. "The magister knows that I will not forget my friends when I come into my throne."
Dany said nothing. Magister Illyrio was a dealer in spices, gemstones, dragonbone, and other, less
savory things. He had friends in all of the Nine Free Cities, it was said, and even beyond, in Vaes
Dothrak
and the fabled lands beside the Jade Sea. It was also said that he'd never had a friend he wouldn't


cheerfully sell for the right price. Dany listened to the talk in the streets, and she heard these things, but
she knew better than to question her brother when he wove his webs of dream. His anger was a terrible
thing when roused. Viserys called it "waking the dragon."
Her brother hung the gown beside the door. "Illyrio will send the slaves to bathe you. Be sure you wash
off the stink of the stables. Khal Drogo has a thousand horses, tonight he looks for a different sort of
mount." He studied her critically. "You still slouch. Straighten yourself" He pushed back her shoulders
with his hands. "Let them see that you have a woman's shape now." His fingers brushed lightly over her
budding breasts and tightened on a nipple. "You will not fail me tonight. If you do, it will go hard for you.
You don't want to wake the dragon, do you?" His fingers twisted her, the pinch cruelly hard through the
rough fabric of her tunic. "Do you?" he repeated.
"No," Dany said meekly.
Her brother smiled. "Good." He touched her hair, almost with affection. "When they write the history of
my reign, sweet sister, they will say that it began tonight."
When he was gone, Dany went to her window and looked out wistfully on the waters of the bay. The
square brick towers of Pentos were black silhouettes outlined against the setting sun. Dany could hear the
singing of the red priests as they lit their night fires and the shouts of ragged children playing games
beyond the walls of the estate. For a moment she wished she could be out there with them, barefoot and
breathless and dressed in tatters, with no past and no future and no feast to attend at Khal Drogo's
manse.
Somewhere beyond the sunset, across the narrow sea, lay a land of green hills and flowered plains and
great rushing rivers, where towers of dark stone rose amidst magnificent blue-grey mountains, and
armored knights rode to battle beneath the banners of their lords. The Dothraki called that land Rhaesh
Andahli, the land of the Andals. In the Free Cities, they talked of Westeros and the Sunset Kingdoms.
Her brother had a simpler name. "Our land," he called it. The words were like a prayer with him. If he
said them enough, the gods were sure to hear. "Ours by blood right, taken from us by treachery, but ours
still, ours forever. You do not steal from the dragon, oh, no. The dragon remembers."
And perhaps the dragon did remember, but Dany could not. She had never seen this land her brother
said was theirs, this realm beyond the narrow sea. These places he talked of, Casterly Rock and the
Eyrie, Highgarden and the Vale of Arryn, Dorne and the Isle of Faces, they were just words to her.
Viserys had been a boy of eight when they fled King's Landing to escape the advancing armies of the
Usurper, but Daenerys had been only a quickening in their mother's womb.
Yet sometimes Dany would picture the way it had been, so often had her brother told her the stories.
The midnight flight to Dragonstone, moonlight shimmering on the ship's black sails. Her brother Rhaegar
battling the Usurper in the bloody waters of the Trident and dying for the woman he loved. The sack of
King's Landing by the ones Viserys called the Usurper's dogs, the lords Lannister and Stark. Princess
Elia of Dorne pleading for mercy as Rhaegar's heir was ripped from her breast and murdered before her
eyes. The polished skulls of the last dragons staring down sightlessly from the walls of the throne room
while the Kingslayer opened Father's throat with a golden sword.
She had been born on Dragonstone nine moons after their flight, while a raging summer storm threatened
to rip the island fastness apart. They said that storm was terrible. The Targaryen fleet was smashed while
it lay at anchor, and huge stone blocks were ripped from the parapets and sent hurtling into the wild
waters of the narrow sea. Her mother had died birthing her, and for that her brother Viserys had never


forgiven her.
She did not remember Dragonstone either. They had run again, just before the Usurper's brother set sail
with his new-built fleet. By then only Dragonstone itself, the ancient seat of their House, had remained of
the Seven Kingdoms that had once been theirs. It would not remain for long. The garrison had been
prepared to sell them to the Usurper, but one night Ser Willem Darry and four loyal men had broken into
the nursery and stolen them both, along with her wet nurse, and set sail under cover of darkness for the
safety of the Braavosian coast.
She remembered Ser Willem dimly, a great grey bear of a man, halfblind, roaring and bellowing orders
from his sickbed. The servants had lived in terror of him, but he had always been kind to Dany. He called
her "Little Princess" and sometimes "My Lady," and his hands were soft as old leather. He never left his
bed, though, and the smell of sickness clung to him day and night, a hot, moist, sickly sweet odor. That
was when they lived in Braavos, in the big house with the red door. Dany had her own room there, with a
lemon tree outside her window. After Ser Willem had died, the servants had stolen what little money they
had left, and soon after they had been put out of the big house. Dany had cried when the red door closed
behind them forever.
They had wandered since then, from Braavos to Myr, from Myr to Tyrosh, and on to Qohor and
Volantis and Lys, never staying long in
any one place. Her brother would not allow it. The Usurper's hired knives were close behind them, he
insisted, though Dany had never seen one.
At first the magisters and archons and merchant princes were pleased to welcome the last Targaryens to
their homes and tables, but as the years passed and the Usurper continued to sit upon the Iron Throne,
doors closed and their lives grew meaner. Years past they had been forced to sell their last few treasures,
and now even the coin they had gotten from Mother's crown had gone. In the alleys and wine sinks of
Pentos, they called her brother "the beggar king." Dany did not want to know what they called her.
"We will have it all back someday, sweet sister," he would promise her. Sometimes his hands shook
when he talked about it. "The jewels and the silks, Dragonstone and King's Landing, the Iron Throne and
the Seven Kingdoms, all they have taken from us, we will have it back." Viserys lived for that day. All
that Daenerys wanted back was the big house with the red door, the lemon tree outside her window, the
childhood she had never known.
There came a soft knock on her door. "Come," Dany said, turning away from the window. Illyrio's
servants entered, bowed, and set about their business. They were slaves, a gift from one of the magister's
many Dothraki friends. There was no slavery in the free city of Pentos. Nonetheless, they were slaves.
The old woman, small and grey as a mouse, never said a word, but the girl made up for it. She was
Illyrio's favorite, a fair-haired, blue-eyed wench of sixteen who chattered constantly as she worked.
They filled her bath with hot water brought up from the kitchen and scented it with fragrant oils. The girl
pulled the rough cotton tunic over Dany's head and helped her into the tub. The water was scalding hot,
but Daenerys did not flinch or cry out. She liked the heat. It made her feel clean. Besides, her brother
had often told her that it was never too
hot for a Targaryen. "Ours is the house of the dragon," he would say. "The fire is in our blood."
The old woman washed her long, silver-pale hair and gently combed out the snags, all in silence. The girl
scrubbed her back and her feet and told her how lucky she was. "Drogo is so rich that even his slaves


wear golden collars. A hundred thousand men ride in his khalasar, and
his palace in Vaes Dothrak has two hundred rooms and doors of solid silver." There was more like that,
so much more, what a handsome
man the khal was, so tall and fierce, fearless in battle, the best rider ever to mount a horse, a demon
archer. Daenerys said nothing. She had always assumed that she would wed Viserys when she came of
age.
For centuries the Targaryens had married brother to sister, since Aegon the Conqueror had taken his
sisters to bride. The line must be kept pure, Viserys had told her a thousand times; theirs was the
kingsblood, the golden blood of old Valyria, the blood of the dragon. Dragons did not mate with the
beasts of the field, and Targaryens did not mingle their blood with that of lesser men. Yet now Viserys
schemed to sell her to a stranger, a barbarian.
When she was clean, the slaves helped her from the water and toweled her dry. The girl brushed her hair
until it shone like molten silver, while the old woman anointed her with the spiceflower perfume of the
Dothraki plains, a dab on each wrist, behind her ears, on the tips of her breasts, and one last one, cool
on her lips, down there between her legs. They dressed her in the wisps that Magister Illyrio had sent up,
and then the gown, a deep plum silk to bring out the violet in her eyes. The girl slid the gilded sandals
onto her feet, while the old woman fixed the tiara in her hair, and slid golden bracelets crusted with
amethysts around her wrists. Last of all came the collar, a heavy golden tore emblazoned with ancient
Valyrian glyphs.
"Now you look all a princess," the girl said breathlessly when they were done. Dany glanced at her
image in the silvered looking glass that Illyrio had so thoughtfully provided. A princess, she thought, but
she remembered what the girl had said, how Khal Drogo was so rich even his slaves wore golden collars.
She felt a sudden chill, and gooseflesh pimpled her bare arms.
Her brother was waiting in the cool of the entry hall, seated on the edge of the pool, his hand trailing in
the water. He rose when she appeared and looked her over critically. "Stand there," he told her. "Turn
around. Yes. Good. You look . . ."
"Regal," Magister Illyrio said, stepping through an archway. He moved with surprising delicacy for such
a massive man. Beneath loose garments of flame-colored silk, rolls of fat jiggled as he walked.
Gemstones glittered on every finger, and his man had oiled his forked yellow beard until it shone like real
gold. "May the Lord of Light shower you with blessings on this most fortunate day, Princess Daenerys,"
the magister said as he took her hand. He bowed his head, showing a thin glimpse of crooked yellow
teeth through the gold of his beard. "She is a vision, Your Grace, a vision," he told her brother. "Drogo
will be enraptured."
"She's too skinny," Viserys said. His hair, the same silver-blond as hers, had been pulled back tightly
behind his head and fastened with a dragonbone brooch. It was a severe look that emphasized the hard,
gaunt lines of his face. He rested his hand on the hilt of the sword that
Illyrio had lent him, and said, "Are you sure that Khal Drogo likes his women this young?"
"She has had her blood. She is old enough for the khal, " Illyrio told him, not for the first time. "Look at
her. That silvergold hair, those purple eyes . . . she is the blood of old Valyria, no doubt, no doubt . . .
and highborn, daughter of the old king, sister to the new, she cannot fail to entrance our Drogo." When
he released her hand, Daenerys found herself trembling.


"I suppose," her brother said doubtfully. "The savages have queer tastes. Boys, horses, sheep . . ."
"Best not suggest this to Khal Drogo," Illyrio said.
Anger flashed in her brother's lilac eyes. "Do you take me for a fool?"
The magister bowed slightly. "I take you for a king. Kings lack the caution of common men. My
apologies if I have given offense." He turned away and clapped his hands for his bearers.
The streets of Pentos were pitch-dark when they set out in Illyrio's elaborately carved palanquin. Two
servants went ahead to light their way, carrying ornate oil lanterns with panes of pale blue glass, while a
dozen strong men hoisted the poles to their shoulders. It was warm and close inside behind the curtains.
Dany could smell the stench of Illyrio's pallid flesh through his heavy perfumes.
Her brother, sprawled out on his pillows beside her, never noticed. His mind was away across the
narrow sea. "We won't need his whole khalasar, " Viserys said. His fingers toyed with the hilt of his
borrowed blade, though Dany knew he had never used a sword in earnest. "Ten thousand, that would be
enough, I could sweep the Seven Kingdoms with ten thousand Dothraki screamers. The realm will rise
for its rightful king. Tyrell, Redwyne, Darry, Greyjoy, they have no more love for the Usurper than I do.
The Dornishmen burn to avenge Elia and her children. And the smallfolk will be with us. They cry out for
their king." He looked at Illyrio anxiously. "They do, don't they?"
"They are your people, and they love you well," Magister Illyrio said amiably. "In holdfasts all across the
realm, men lift secret toasts to your health while women sew dragon banners and hide them against the
day of your return from across the water." He gave a massive shrug. "Or so my agents tell me."
Dany had no agents, no way of knowing what anyone was doing or thinking across the narrow sea, but
she mistrusted Illyrio's sweet words as she mistrusted everything about Illyrio. Her brother was nodding
eagerly, however. "I shall kill the Usurper myself," he promised, who
had never killed anyone, "as he killed my brother Rhaegar. And Lannister too, the Kingslayer, for what
he did to my father."
"That would be most fitting," Magister Illyrio said. Dany saw the smallest hint of a smile playing around
his full lips, but her brother did not notice. Nodding, he pushed back a curtain and stared off into the
night, and Dany knew he was fighting the Battle of the Trident once again.
The nine-towered manse of Khal Drogo sat beside the waters of the bay, its high brick walls overgrown
with pale ivy. It had been given to the khal by the magisters of Pentos, Illyrio told them. The Free Cities
were always generous with the horselords. "It is not that we fear these barbarians," Illyrio would explain
with a smile. "The Lord of Light would hold our city walls against a million Dothraki, or so the red priests
promise . . . yet why take chances, when their friendship comes so cheap?"
Their palanquin was stopped at the gate, the curtains pulled roughly back by one of the house guards.
He had the copper skin and dark almond eyes of a Dothraki, but his face was hairless and he wore the
spiked bronze cap of the Unsullied. He looked them over coldly. Magister Illyrio growled something to
him in the rough Dothraki tongue; the guardsman replied in the same voice and waved them through the
gates.
Dany noticed that her brother's hand was clenched tightly around the hilt of his borrowed sword. He


looked almost as frightened as she felt. "Insolent eunuch," Viserys muttered as the palanquin lurched up
toward the manse.
Magister Illyrio's words were honey. "Many important men will be at the feast tonight. Such men have
enemies. The khal must protect his guests, yourself chief among them, Your Grace. No doubt the
Usurper would pay well for your head."
"Oh, yes," Viserys said darkly. "He has tried, Illyrio, I promise you that. His hired knives follow us
everywhere. I am the last dragon, and he will not sleep easy while I live."
The palanquin slowed and stopped. The curtains were thrown back, and a slave offered a hand to help
Daenerys out. His collar, she noted, was ordinary bronze. Her brother followed, one hand still clenched
hard around his sword hilt. It took two strong men to get Magister Illyrio back on his feet.
Inside the manse, the air was heavy with the scent of spices, pinchfire and sweet lemon and cinnamon.
They were escorted across the entry hall, where a mosaic of colored glass depicted the Doom of Valyria.
Oil burned in black iron lanterns all along the walls. Beneath
an arch of twining stone leaves, a eunuch sang their coming. "Viserys of the House Targaryen, the Third
of his Name," he called in a high, sweet voice, "King of the Andals and the Rhoynar and the First Men,
Lord of the Seven Kingdoms and Protector of the Realm. His sister, Daenerys Stormborn, Princess of
Dragonstone. His honorable host, Illyrio Mopatis, Magister of the Free City of Pentos."
They stepped past the eunuch into a pillared courtyard overgrown in pale ivy. Moonlight painted the
leaves in shades of bone and silver as the guests drifted among them. Many were Dothraki horselords,
big men with red-brown skin, their drooping mustachios bound in metal rings, their black hair oiled and
braided and hung with bells. Yet among them moved bravos and sellswords from Pentos and Myr and
Tyrosh, a red priest even fatter than Illyrio, hairy men from the Port of Ibben, and lords from the Summer
Isles with skin as black as ebony. Daenerys looked at them all in wonder . . . and realized, with a sudden
start of fear, that she was the only woman there.
Illyrio whispered to them. "Those three are Drogo's bloodriders, there," he said. "By the pillar is Khal
Moro, with his son Rhogoro. The man with the green beard is brother to the Archon of Tyrosh, and the
man behind him is Ser Jorah Mormont."
The last name caught Daenerys. "A knight?"
"No less." Illyrio smiled through his beard. "Anointed with the seven oils by the High Septon himself."
"What is he doing here?" she blurted.
"The Usurper wanted his head," Illyrio told them. "Some trifling affront. He sold some poachers to a
Tyroshi slaver instead of giving them to the Night's Watch. Absurd law. A man should be able to do as
he likes with his own chattel."
"I shall wish to speak with Ser Jorah before the night is done," her brother said. Dany found herself
looking at the knight curiously. He was an older man, past forty and balding, but still strong and fit.
Instead of silks and cottons, he wore wool and leather. His tunic was a dark green, embroidered with the
likeness of a black bear standing on two legs.
She was still looking at this strange man from the homeland she had never known when Magister Illyrio


placed a moist hand on her bare shoulder. "Over there, sweet princess," he whispered, "there is the khal
himself."
Dany wanted to run and hide, but her brother was looking at her, and if she displeased him she knew
she would wake the dragon. Anxiously, she turned and looked at the man Viserys hoped would ask to
wed her before the night was done.
The slave girl had not been far wrong, she thought. Khal Drogo was a head taller than the tallest man in
the room, yet somehow light on his feet, as graceful as the panther in Illyrio's menagerie. He was younger
than she'd thought, no more than thirty. His skin was the color of polished copper, his thick mustachios
bound with gold and bronze rings.
"I must go and make my submissions," Magister Illyrio said. "Wait here. I shall bring him to you."
Her brother took her by the arm as Illyrio waddled over to the khal, his fingers squeezing so hard that
they hurt. "Do you see his braid, sweet sister?"
Drogo's braid was black as midnight and heavy with scented oil, hung with tiny bells that rang softly as
he moved. It swung well past his belt, below even his buttocks, the end of it brushing against the back of
his thighs.
"You see how long it is?" Viserys said. "When Dothraki are defeated in combat, they cut off their braids
in disgrace, so the world will know their shame. Khal Drogo has never lost a fight. He is Aegon the
Dragonlord come again, and you will be his queen."
Dany looked at Khal Drogo. His face was hard and cruel, his eyes as cold and dark as onyx. Her
brother hurt her sometimes, when she woke the dragon, but he did not frighten her the way this man
frightened her. "I don't want to be his queen," she heard herself say in a small, thin voice. "Please, please,
Viserys, I don't want to, I want to go home."
"Home?" He kept his voice low, but she could hear the fury in his tone. "How are we to go home, sweet
sister? They took our home from us!" He drew her into the shadows, out of sight, his fingers digging into
her skin. "How are we to go home?" he repeated, meaning King's Landing, and Dragonstone, and all the
realm they had lost.
Dany had only meant their rooms in Illyrio's estate, no true home surely, though all they had, but her
brother did not want to hear that. There was no home there for him. Even the big house with the red door
had not been home for him. His fingers dug hard into her arm, demanding an answer. "I don't know she
said at last, her voice breaking. Tears welled in her eyes.
"I do," he said sharply. "We go home with an army, sweet sister. With Khal Drogo's army, that is how
we go home. And if you must wed him and bed him for that, you will." He smiled at her. "I'd let his whole
khalasar fuck you if need be, sweet sister, all forty thousand men, and their horses too if that was what it
took to get my army. Be grateful it is
only Drogo. In time you may even learn to like him. Now dry your eyes. Illyrio is bringing him over, and
he will not see you crying."
Dany turned and saw that it was true. Magister Illyrio, all smiles and bows, was escorting Khal Drogo
over to where they stood. She brushed away unfallen tears with the back of her hand.


"Smile," Viserys whispered nervously, his hand failing to the hilt of his sword. "And stand up straight. Let
him see that you have breasts. Gods know, you have little enough as is."
Daenerys smiled, and stood up straight.
EDDARD
The visitors poured through the castle gates in a river of gold and silver and polished steel, three hundred
strong, a pride of bannermen and knights, of sworn swords and freeriders. Over their heads a dozen
golden banners whipped back and forth in the northern wind, emblazoned with the crowned stag of
Baratheon.
Ned knew many of the riders. There came Ser Jaime Lannister with hair as bright as beaten gold, and
there Sandor Clegane with his terrible burned face. The tall boy beside him could only be the crown
prince, and that stunted little man behind them was surely the Imp, Tyrion Lannister.
Yet the huge man at the head of the column, flanked by two knights in the snow-white cloaks of the
Kingsguard, seemed almost a stranger to Ned . . . until he vaulted off the back of his warhorse with a
familiar roar, and crushed him in a bone-crunching hug. "Ned! Ah, but it is good to see that frozen face of
yours." The king looked him over top to bottom, and laughed. "You have not changed at all."
Would that Ned had been able to say the same. Fifteen years past, when they had ridden forth to win a
throne, the Lord of Storm's End had been clean-shaven, clear-eyed, and muscled like a maiden's fantasy.
Six and a half feet tall, he towered over lesser men, and when he donned his armor and the great antlered
helmet of his House, he became a veritable giant. He'd had a giant's strength too, his weapon
of choice a spiked iron warhammer that Ned could scarcely lift. In those days, the smell of leather and
blood had clung to him like perfume.
Now it was perfume that clung to him like perfume, and he had a girth to match his height. Ned had last
seen the king nine years before during Balon Greyjoy's rebellion, when the stag and the direwolf had
joined to end the pretensions of the self-proclaimed King of the Iron Islands. Since the night they had
stood side by side in Greyjoy's fallen stronghold, where Robert had accepted the rebel lord's surrender
and Ned had taken his son Theon as hostage and ward, the king had gained at least eight stone. A beard
as coarse and black as iron wire covered his jaw to hide his double chin and the sag of the royal jowls,
but nothing could hide his stomach or the dark circles under his eyes.
Yet Robert was Ned's king now, and not just a friend, so he said only, "Your Grace. Winterfell is
yours."
By then the others were dismounting as well, and grooms were coming forward for their mounts.
Robert's queen, Cersei Lannister, entered on foot with her younger children. The wheelhouse in which
they had ridden, a huge double-decked carriage of oiled oak and gilded metal pulled by forty heavy draft
horses, was too wide to pass through the castle gate. Ned knelt in the snow to kiss the queen's ring,
while Robert embraced Catelyn like a long-lost sister. Then the children had been brought forward,
introduced, and approved of by both sides.
No sooner had those formalities of greeting been completed than the king had said to his host, "Take me
down to your crypt, Eddard. I would pay my respects."


Ned loved him for that, for remembering her still after all these years. He called for a lantern. No other
words were needed. The queen had begun to protest. They had been riding since dawn, everyone was
tired and cold, surely they should refresh themselves first. The dead would wait. She had said no more
than that; Robert had looked at her, and her twin brother Jaime had taken her quietly by the arm, and she
had said no more.
They went down to the crypt together, Ned and this king he scarcely recognized. The winding stone
steps were narrow. Ned went first with the lantern. "I was starting to think we would never reach
Winterfell," Robert complained as they descended. "In the south, the way they talk about my Seven
Kingdoms, a man forgets that your part is as big as the other six combined."
"I trust you enjoyed the journey, Your Grace?"
Robert snorted. "Bogs and forests and fields, and scarcely a decent
inn north of the Neck. I've never seen such a vast emptiness. Where are all yourpeople?"
"Likely they were too shy to come out," Ned jested. He could feel the chill coming up the stairs, a cold
breath from deep within the earth. "Kings are a rare sight in the north."
Robert snorted. "More likely they were hiding under the snow. Snow, Ned!" The king put one hand on
the wall to steady himself as they descended.
"Late summer snows are common enough," Ned said. "I hope they did not trouble you. They are usually
mild."
"The Others take your mild snows," Robert swore. "What will this place be like in winter? I shudder to
think."
"The winters are hard," Ned admitted. "But the Starks will endure. We always have."
"You need to come south," Robert told him. "You need a taste of summer before it flees. In Highgarden
there are fields of golden roses that stretch away as far as the eye can see. The fruits are so ripe they
explode in your mouth-melons, peaches, fireplums, you've never tasted such sweetness. You'll see, I
brought you some. Even at Storm's End, with that good wind off the bay, the days are so hot you can
barely move. And you ought to see the towns, Ned! Flowers everywhere, the markets bursting with
food, the surnmerwines so cheap and so good that you can get drunk just breathing the air. Everyone is
fat and drunk and rich." He laughed and slapped his own ample stomach a thump. "And the girls, Ned!"
he exclaimed, his eyes sparkling. "I swear, women lose all modesty in the heat. They swim naked in the
river, right beneath the castle. Even in the streets, it's too damn hot for wool or fur, so they go around in
these short gowns, silk if they have the silver and cotton if not, but it's all the same when they start
sweating and the cloth sticks to their skin, they might as well be naked." The king laughed happily.
Robert Baratheon had always been a man of huge appetites, a man who knew how to take his
pleasures. That was not a charge anyone could lay at the door of Eddard Stark. Yet Ned could not help
but notice that those pleasures were taking a toll on the king. Robert was breathing heavily by the time
they reached the bottom of the stairs, his face red in the lantern light as they stepped out into the darkness
of the crypt.
"Your Grace," Ned said respectfully. He swept the lantern in a wide semicircle. Shadows moved and


lurched. Flickering light touched the stones underfoot and brushed against a long procession of granite
pillars that marched ahead, two by two, into the dark. Between the
pillars, the dead sat on their stone thrones against the walls, backs against the sepulchres that contained
their mortal remains. "She is down at the end, with Father and Brandon."
He led the way between the pillars and Robert followed wordlessly, shivering in the subterranean chill. It
was always cold down here. Their footsteps rang off the stones and echoed in the vault overhead as they
walked among the dead of House Stark. The Lords of Winterfell watched them pass. Their likenesses
were carved into the stones that sealed the tombs. In long rows they sat, blind eyes staring out into
eternal darkness, while great stone direwolves curled round their feet. The shifting shadows made the
stone figures seem to stir as the living passed by.
By ancient custom an iron longsword had been laid across the lap of each who had been Lord of
Winterfell, to keep the vengeful spirits in their crypts. The oldest had long ago rusted away to nothing,
leaving only a few red stains where the metal had rested on stone. Ned wondered if that meant those
ghosts were free to roam the castle now. He hoped not. The first Lords of Winterfell had been men hard
as the land they ruled. In the centuries before the Dragonlords came over the sea, they had sworn
allegiance to no man, styling themselves the Kings in the North.
Ned stopped at last and lifted the oil lantern. The crypt continued on into darkness ahead of them, but
beyond this point the tombs were empty and unsealed; black holes waiting for their dead, waiting for him
and his children. Ned did not like to think on that. "Here," he told his king.
Robert nodded silently, knelt, and bowed his head.
There were three tombs, side by side. Lord Rickard Stark, Ned's father, had a long, stern face. The
stonemason had known him well. He sat with quiet dignity, stone fingers holding tight to the sword across
his lap, but in life all swords had failed him. In two smaller sepulchres on either side were his children.
Brandon had been twenty when he died, strangled by order of the Mad King Aerys Targaryen only a
few short days before he was to wed Catelyn Tully of Riverrun. His father had been forced to watch him
die. He was the true heir, the eldest, born to rule.
Lyanna had only been sixteen, a child-woman of surpassing loveliness. Ned had loved her with all his
heart. Robert had loved her even more. She was to have been his bride.
"She was more beautiful than that," the king said after a silence. His eyes lingered on Lyanna's face, as if
he could will her back to life. Finally he rose, made awkward by his weight. "Ah, damn it, Ned, did
you have to bury her in a place like this?" His voice was hoarse with remembered grief. "She deserved
more than darkness . . ."
"She was a Stark of Winterfell," Ned said quietly. "This is her place."
"She should be on a hill somewhere, under a fruit tree, with the sun and clouds above her and the rain to
wash her clean."
"I was with her when she died," Ned reminded the king. "She wanted to come home, to rest beside
Brandon and Father." He could hear her still at times. Promise me, she had cried, in a room that smelled
of blood and roses. Promise me, Ned. The fever had taken her strength and her voice had been faint as a


whisper, but when he gave her his word, the fear had gone out of his sister's eyes. Ned remembered the
way she had smiled then, how tightly her fingers had clutched his as she gave up her hold on life, the rose
petals spilling from her palm, dead and black. After that he remembered nothing. They had found him still
holding her body, silent with grief. The little crannogman, Howland Reed, had taken her hand from his.
Ned could recall none of it. "I bring her flowers when I can," he said. "Lyanna was . . . fond of flowers."
The king touched her cheek, his fingers brushing across the rough stone as gently as if it were living flesh.
"I vowed to kill Rhaegar for what he did to her."
"You did," Ned reminded him.
"Only once," Robert said bitterly.
They had come together at the ford of the Trident while the battle crashed around them, Robert with his
warhammer and his great antlered helm, the Targaryen prince armored all in black. On his breastplate
was the three-headed dragon of his House, wrought all in rubies that flashed like fire in the sunlight. The
waters of the Trident ran red around the hooves of their destriers as they circled and clashed, again and
again, until at last a crushing blow from Robert's hammer stove in the dragon and the chest beneath it.
When Ned had finally come on the scene, Rhaegar lay dead in the stream, while men of both armies
scrabbled in the swirling waters for rubies knocked free of his armor.
"In my dreams, I kill him every night," Robert admitted. "A thousand deaths will still be less than he
deserves."
There was nothing Ned could say to that. After a quiet, he said, "We should return, Your Grace. Your
wife will be waiting."
"The Others take my wife," Robert muttered sourly, but he started back the way they had come, his
footsteps falling heavily. "And if I hear 'Your Grace' once more, I'll have your head on a spike. We are
more to each other than that."
"I had not forgotten," Ned replied quietly. When the king did not answer, he said, "Tell me about Jon."
Robert shook his head. "I have never seen a man sicken so quickly. We gave a tourney on my son's
name day. If you had seen Jon then, you would have sworn he would live forever. A fortnight later he
was dead. The sickness was like a fire in his gut. It burned right through him." He paused beside a pillar,
before the tomb of a long-dead Stark. "I loved that old man."
"We both did." Ned paused a moment. "Catelyn fears for her sister. How does Lysa bear her grief?"
Robert's mouth gave a bitter twist. "Not well, in truth," he admitted. "I think losing Jon has driven the
woman mad, Ned. She has taken the boy back to the Eyrie. Against my wishes. I had hoped to foster
him with Tywin Lannister at Casterly Rock. Jon had no brothers, no other sons. Was I supposed to leave
him to be raised by women?"
Ned would sooner entrust a child to a pit viper than to Lord Tywin, but he left his doubts unspoken.
Some old wounds never truly heal, and bleed again at the slightest word. "The wife has lost the husband,"
he said carefully. "Perhaps-the mother feared to lose the son. The boy is very young."
"Six, and sickly, and Lord of the Eyrie, gods have mercy," the king swore. "Lord Tywin had never taken
a ward before. Lysa ought to have been honored. The Lannisters are a great and noble House. She


refused to even hear of it. Then she left in the dead of night, without so much as a by-your-leave. Cersei
was furious." He sighed deeply. "The boy is my namesake, did you know that? Robert Arryn. I am
sworn to protect him. How can I do that if his mother steals him away?"
"I will take him as ward, if you wish," Ned said. "Lysa should consent to that. She and Catelyn were
close as girls, and she would be welcome here as well."
"A generous offer, my friend," the king said, "but too late. Lord Tywin has already given his consent.
Fostering the boy elsewhere would be a grievous affront to him."
"I have more concern for my nephew's welfare than I do for Lannister pride," Ned declared.
"That is because you do not sleep with a Lannister." Robert laughed, the sound rattling among the tombs
and bouncing from the vaulted ceiling. His smile was a flash of white teeth in the thicket of the huge black
beard. "Ah, Ned," he said, "you are still too serious." He put a massive arm around Ned's shoulders. "I
had planned to wait a few days to speak to you, but I see now there's no need for it. Come, walk with
me."
They started back down between the pillars. Blind stone eyes seemed to follow them as they passed.
The king kept his arm around Ned's shoulder. "You must have wondered why I finally came north to
Winterfell, after so long."
Ned had his suspicions, but he did not give them voice. "For the joy of my company, surely," he said
lightly. "And there is the Wall. You need to see it, Your Grace, to walk along its battlements and talk to
those who man it. The Night's Watch is a shadow of what it once was. Benjen says-"
"No doubt I will hear what your brother says soon enough," Robert said. "The Wall has stood for what,
eight thousand years? It can keep a few days more. I have more pressing concerns. These are difficult
times. I need good men about me. Men like Jon Arryn. He served as Lord of the Eyrie, as Warden of
the East, as the Hand of the King. He will not be easy to replace."
"His son . . ." Ned began.
"His son will succeed to the Eyrie and all its incomes," Robert said brusquely. "No more."
That took Ned by surprise. He stopped, startled, and turned to look at his king. The words came
unbidden. "The Arryns have always been Wardens of the East. The title goes with the domain."
"Perhaps when he comes of age, the honor can be restored to him," Robert said. "I have this year to
think of, and next. A six-year-old boy is no war leader, Ned."
"In peace, the title is only an honor. Let the boy keep it. For his father's sake if not his own. Surely you
owe, Jon that much for his service."
The king was not pleased. He took his arm from around Ned's shoulders. "Jon's service was the duty he
owed his liege lord. I am not ungrateful, Ned. You of all men ought to know that. But the son is not the
father. A mere boy cannot hold the east." Then his tone softened. "Enough of this. There is a more
important office to discuss, and I would not argue with you." Robert grasped Ned by the elbow. "I have
need of you, Ned."
"I am yours to command, Your Grace. Always." They were words he had to say, and so he said them,


apprehensive about what might come next.
Robert scarcely seemed to hear him. "Those years we spent in the Eyrie . . . gods, those were good
years. I want you at my side again, Ned. I want you down in King's Landing, not up here at the end of
the world where you are no damned use to anybody." Robert looked off into the darkness, for a moment
as melancholy as a Stark. "I swear to
you, sitting a throne is a thousand times harder than winning one. Laws are a tedious business and
counting coppers is worse. And the people . . . there is no end of them. I sit on that damnable iron chair
and listen to them complain until my mind is numb and my ass is raw. They all want something, money or
land or justice. The lies they tell . . . and my lords and ladies are no better. I am surrounded by flatterers
and fools. It can drive a man to madness, Ned. Half of them don't dare tell me the truth, and the other
half can't find it. There are nights I wish we had lost at the Trident. Ah, no, not truly, but
"I understand," Ned said softly.
Robert looked at him. "I think you do. If so, you are the only one, my old friend." He smiled. "Lord
Eddard Stark, I would name you the Hand of the King."
Ned dropped to one knee. The offer did not surprise him; what other reason could Robert have had for
coming so far? The Hand of the King was the second-most powerful man in the Seven Kingdoms. He
spoke with the king's voice, commanded the king's armies, drafted the king's laws. At times he even sat
upon the Iron Throne to dispense king's justice, when the king was absent, or sick, or otherwise
indisposed. Robert was offering him a responsibility as large as the realm itself.
It was the last thing in the world he wanted.
"Your Grace," he said. "I am not worthy of the honor."
Robert groaned with good-humored impatience. "If I wanted to honor you, I'd let you retire. I am
planning to make you run the kingdom and fight the wars while I eat and drink and wench myself into an
early grave." He slapped his gut and grinned. "You know the saying, about the king and his Hand?"
Ned knew the saying. "What the king dreams," he said, "the Hand builds."
"I bedded a fishmaid once who told me the lowborn have a choicer way to put it. The king eats, they
say, and the Hand takes the shit." He threw back his head and roared his laughter. The echoes rang
through the darkness, and all around them the dead of Winterfell seemed to watch with cold and
disapproving eyes.
Finally the laughter dwindled and stopped. Ned was still on one knee, his eyes upraised. "Damn it,
Ned," the king complained. "You might at least humor me with a smile."
"They say it grows so cold up here in winter that a man's laughter freezes in his throat and chokes him to
death," Ned said evenly. "Perhaps that is why the Starks have so little humor."
"Come south with me, and I'll teach you how to laugh again," the
king promised. "You helped me win this damnable throne, now help me hold it. We were meant to rule
together. If Lyanna had lived, we should have been brothers, bound by blood as well as affection. Well,
it is not too late. I have a son. You have a daughter. My Joff and your Sansa shall join our houses, as


Lyanna and I might once have done."
This offer did surprise him. "Sansa is only eleven."
Robert waved an impatient hand. "Old enough for betrothal. The marriage can wait a few years." The
king smiled. "Now stand up and say yes, curse you."
"Nothing would give me greater pleasure, Your Grace," Ned answered. He hesitated. "These honors are
all so unexpected. May I have some time to consider? I need to tell my wife . . ."
"Yes, yes, of course, tell Catelyn, sleep on it if you must." The king reached down, clasped Ned by the
hand, and pulled him roughly to his feet. "Just don't keep me waiting too long. I am not the most patient
of men."
For a moment Eddard Stark was filled with a terrible sense of foreboding. This was his place, here in the
north. He looked at the stone figures all around them, breathed deep in the chill silence of the crypt. He
could feel the eyes of the dead. They were all listening, he knew. And winter was coming.
JON
There were times-not many, but a few-when Jon Snow was glad he was a bastard. As he filled his wine
cup once more from a passing flagon, it struck him that this might be one of them.
He settled back in his place on the bench among the younger squires and drank. The sweet, fruity taste
of surnmerwine filled his mouth and brought a smile to his lips.
The Great Hall of Winterfell was hazy with smoke and heavy with the smell of roasted meat and
fresh-baked bread. Its grey stone walls were draped with banners. White, gold, crimson: the direwolf of
Stark, Baratheon's crowned stag, the lion of Lannister. A singer was playing the high harp and reciting a
ballad, but down at this end of the hall his voice could scarcely be heard above the roar of the fire, the
clangor of pewter plates and cups, and the low mutter of a hundred drunken conversations.
It was the fourth hour of the welcoming feast laid for the king. Jon's brothers and sisters had been seated
with the royal children, beneath the raised platform where Lord and Lady Stark hosted the king and
queen. In honor of the occasion, his lord father would doubtless permit each child a glass of wine, but no
more than that. Down here on the benches, there was no one to stop Jon drinking as much as he had a
thirst for.
And he was finding that he had a man's thirst, to the raucous delight of the youths around him, who urged
him on every time he drained a glass. They were fine company, and Jon relished the stories they were
telling, tales of battle and bedding and the hunt. He was certain that his companions were more
entertaining than the king's offspring. He had sated his curiosity about the visitors when they made their
entrance. The procession had passed not a foot from the place he had been given on the bench, and Jon
had gotten a good long look at them all.
His lord father had come first, escorting the queen. She was as beautiful as men said. A jeweled tiara
gleamed amidst her long golden hair, its emeralds a perfect match for the green of her eyes. His father
helped her up the steps to the dais and led her to her seat, but the queen never so much as looked at him.
Even at fourteen, Jon could see through her smile.


Next had come King Robert himself, with Lady Stark on his arm. The king was a great disappointment
to Jon. His father had talked of him often: the peerless Robert Baratheon, demon of the Trident, the
fiercest warrior of the realm, a giant among princes. Jon saw only a fat man, red-faced under his beard,
sweating through his silks. He walked like a man half in his cups.
After them came the children. Little Rickon first, managing the long walk with all the dignity a
three-year-old could muster. Jon had to urge him on when he stopped to visit. Close behind came Robb,
in grey wool trimmed with white, the Stark colors. He had the Princess Myrcella on his arm. She was a
wisp of a girl, not quite eight, her hair a cascade of golden curls under a jeweled net. Jon noticed the shy
looks she gave Robb as they passed between the tables and the timid way she smiled at him. He decided
she was insipid. Robb didn't even have the sense to realize how stupid she was; he was grinning like a
fool.
His half sisters escorted the royal princes. Arya was paired with plump young Tommen, whose
white-blond hair was longer than hers. Sansa, two years older, drew the crown prince, Joffrey
Baratheon. He was twelve, younger than Jon or Robb, but taller than either, to Jon's vast dismay. Prince
Joffrey had his sister's hair and his mother's deep green eyes. A thick tangle of blond curls dripped down
past his golden choker and high velvet collar. Sansa looked radiant as she walked beside him, but Jon
did not like Joffrey's pouty lips or the bored, disdainful way he looked at Winterfell's Great Hall.
He was more interested in the pair that came behind him: the queen's brothers, the Lannisters of Casterly
Rock. The Lion and the Imp; there was no mistaking which was which. Ser Jaime Lannister was
twin to Queen Cersei; tall and golden, with flashing green eyes and a smile that cut like a knife. He wore
crimson silk, high black boots, a black satin cloak. On the breast of his tunic, the lion of his House was
embroidered in gold thread, roaring its defiance. They called him the Lion of Lannister to his face and
whispered "Kingslayer" behind his back.
Jon found it hard to look away from him. This is what a king should look like, he thought to himself as
the man passed.
Then he saw the other one, waddling along half-hidden by his brother's side. Tyrion Lannister, the
youngest of Lord Tywin's brood and by far the ugliest. All that the gods had given to Cersei and Jaime,
they had denied Tyrion. He was a dwarf, half his brother's height, struggling to keep pace on stunted legs.
His head was too large for his body, with a brute's squashed-in face beneath a swollen shelf of brow.
One green eye and one black one peered out from under a lank fall of hair so blond it seemed white. Jon
watched him with fascination.
The last of the high lords to enter were his uncle, Benjen Stark of the Night's Watch, and his father's
ward, young Theon Greyjoy. Benjen gave Jon a warm smile as he went by. Theon ignored him utterly,
but there was nothing new in that. After all had been seated, toasts were made, thanks were given and
returned, and then the feasting began.
Jon had started drinking then, and he had not stopped.
Something rubbed against his leg beneath the table. Jon saw red eyes staring up at him. "Hungry again?"
he asked. There was still half a honeyed chicken in the center of the table. Jon reached out to tear off a
leg, then had a better idea. He knifed the bird whole and let the carcass slide to the floor between his
legs. Ghost ripped into it in savage silence. His brothers and sisters had not been permitted to bring their
wolves to the banquet, but there were more curs than Jon could count at this end of the hall, and no one


had said a word about his pup. He told himself he was fortunate in that too.
His eyes stung. Jon rubbed at them savagely, cursing the smoke. He swallowed another gulp of wine and
watched his direwolf devour the chicken.
Dogs moved between the tables, trailing after the serving girls. One of them, a black mongrel bitch with
long yellow eyes, caught a scent of the chicken. She stopped and edged under the bench to get a share.
Jon watched the confrontation. The bitch growled low in her throat and moved closer. Ghost looked up,
silent, and fixed the dog with those hot red eyes. The bitch snapped an angry challenge. She was three
times the size of the direwolf pup. Ghost did not move. He stood
over his prize and opened his mouth, baring his fangs. The bitch tensed, barked again, then thought
better of this fight. She turned and slunk away, with one last defiant snap to save her pride. Ghost went
back to his meal.
Jon grinned and reached under the table to ruffle the shaggy white fur. The direwolf looked up at him,
nipped gently at his hand, then went back to eating.
"Is this one of the direwolves I've heard so much of?" a familiar voice asked close at hand.
Jon looked up happily as his uncle Ben put a hand on his head and ruffled his hair much as Jon had
ruffled the wolf s. "Yes," he said. "His name is Ghost."
One of the squires interrupted the bawdy story he'd been telling to make room at the table for their lord's
brother. Benjen Stark straddled the bench with,long legs and took the wine cup out of Jon's hand.
"Summerwine," he said after a taste. "Nothing so sweet. How many cups have you had, Jon?"
Jon smiled.
Ben Stark laughed. "As I feared. Ah, well. I believe I was younger than you the first time I got truly and
sincerely drunk." He snagged a roasted onion, dripping brown with gravy, from a nearby trencher and bit
into it. It crunched.
His uncle was sharp-featured and gaunt as a mountain crag, but there was always a hint of laughter in his
blue-grey eyes. He dressed in black, as befitted a man of the Night's Watch. Tonight it was rich black
velvet, with high leather boots and a wide belt with a silver buckle. A heavy silver chain was looped
round his neck. Benjen watched Ghost with amusement as he ate his onion. "A very quiet wolf," he
observed.
"He's not like the others," Jon said. "He never makes a sound. That's why I named him Ghost. That, and
because he's white. The others are all dark, grey or black."
"There are still direwolves beyond the Wall. We hear them on our rangings." Benjen Stark gave Jon a
long look. "Don't you usually eat at table with your brothers?"
"Most times," Jon answered in a flat voice. "But tonight Lady Stark thought it might give insult to the
royal family to seat a bastard among them."
"I see." His uncle glanced over his shoulder at the raised table at the far end of the hall. "My brother
does not seem very festive tonight."


Jon had noticed that too. A bastard had to learn to notice things, to read the truth that people hid behind
their eyes. His father was observing
all the courtesies, but there was tightness in him that Jon had seldom seen before. He said little,
looking out over the hall with hooded eyes, seeing nothing. Two seats away, the king had been drinking
heavily all night. His broad face was flushed behind his great black beard. He made many a toast,
laughed loudly at every jest, and attacked each dish like a starving man, but beside him the queen seemed
as cold as an ice sculpture. "The queen is angry too," Jon told his uncle in a low, quiet voice. "Father took
the king down to the crypts this afternoon. The queen didn't want him to go."
Benjen gave Jon a careful, measuring look. "You don't miss much, do you, Jon? We could use a man
like you on the Wall."
Jon swelled with pride. "Robb is a stronger lance than I am, but I'm the better sword, and Hullen says I
sit a horse as well as anyone in the castle."
"Notable achievements."
"Take me with you when you go back to the Wall," Jon said in a sudden rush. "Father will give me leave
to go if you ask him, I know he will."
Uncle Benjen studied his face carefully. "The Wall is a hard place for a boy, Jon."
"I am almost a man grown," Jon protested. "I will turn fifteen on my next name day, and Maester Luwin
says bastards grow up faster than other children."
"That's true enough," Benjen said with a downward twist of his mouth. He took Jon's cup from the table,
filled it fresh from a nearby pitcher, and drank down a long swallow.
"Daeren Targaryen was only fourteen when he conquered Dorne," Jon said. The Young Dragon was
one of his heroes.
"A conquest that lasted a summer," his uncle pointed out. "Your Boy King lost ten thousand men taking
the place, and another fifty trying to hold it. Someone should have told him that war isn't a game." He
took another sip of wine. "Also," he said, wiping his mouth, "Daeren Targaryen was only eighteen when
he died. Or have you forgotten that part?"
"I forget nothing," Jon boasted. The wine was making him bold. He tried to sit very straight, to make
himself seem taller. "I want to serve in the Night's Watch, Uncle."
He had thought on it long and hard, lying abed at night while his brothers slept around him. Robb would
someday inherit Winterfell, would command great armies as the Warden of the North. Bran and Rickon
would be Robb's bannermen and rule holdfasts in his name. His sisters Arya and Sansa would marry the
heirs of other great houses
and go south as mistress of castles of their own. But what place could a bastard hope to earn?
"You don't know what you're asking, Jon. The Night's Watch is a sworn brotherhood. We have no
families. None of us will ever father sons. Our wife is duty. Our mistress is honor."
"A bastard can have honor too," Jon said. "I am ready to swear your oath."


"You are a boy of fourteen," Benjen said. "Not a man, not yet. Until you have known a woman, you
cannot understand what you would be giving up."
"I don't care about that!" Jon said hotly.
"You might, if you knew what it meant," Benjen said. "If you knew what the oath would cost you, you
might be less eager to pay the price, son."
Jon felt anger rise inside him. "I'm not your son!"
Benjen Stark stood up. "More's the pity." He put a hand on Jon's shoulder. "Come back to me after
you've fathered a few bastards of your own, and we'll see how you feel."
Jon trembled. "I will never father a bastard," he said carefully. "Never!" He spat it out like venom.
Suddenly he realized that the table had fallen silent, and they were all looking at him. He felt the tears
begin to well behind his eyes. He pushed himself to his feet.
"I must be excused," he said with the last of his dignity. He whirled and bolted before they could see him
cry. He must have drunk more wine than he had realized. His feet got tangled under him as he tried to
leave, and he lurched sideways into a serving girl and sent a flagon of spiced wine crashing to the floor.
Laughter boomed all around him, and Jon felt hot tears on his cheeks. Someone tried to steady him. He
wrenched free of their grip and ran, half-blind, for the door. Ghost followed close at his heels, out into the
night.
The yard was quiet and empty. A lone sentry stood high on the battlements of the inner wall, his cloak
pulled tight around him against the cold. He looked bored and miserable as he huddled there alone, but
Jon would have traded places with him in an instant. Otherwise the castle was dark and deserted. Jon
had seen an abandoned holdfast once, a drear place where nothing moved but the wind and the stones
kept silent about whatever people had lived there. Winterfell reminded him of that tonight.
The sounds of music and song spilled through the open windows behind him. They were the last things
Jon wanted to hear. He wiped
away his tears on the sleeve of his shirt, furious that he had let them fall, and turned to go.
"Boy," a voice called out to him. Jon turned.
Tyrion Lannister was sitting on the ledge above the door to the Great Hall, looking for all the world like
a gargoyle. The dwarf grinned down at him. "Is that animal a wolf?"
"A direwolf," Jon said. "His name is Ghost." He stared up at the little man, his disappointment suddenly
forgotten. "What are you doing up there? Why aren't you at the feast?"
"Too hot, too noisy, and I'd drunk too much wine," the dwarf told him. "I learned long ago that it is
considered rude to vomit on your brother. Might I have a closer look at your wolf?"
Jon hesitated, then nodded slowly. "Can you climb down, or shall I bring a ladder?"
"Oh, bleed that," the little man said. He pushed himself off the ledge into empty air. Jon gasped, then


watched with awe as Tyrion Lannister spun around in a tight ball, landed lightly on his hands, then vaulted
backward onto his legs.
Ghost backed away from him uncertainly.
The dwarf dusted himself off and laughed. "I believe I've frightened your wolf. My apologies."
"He's not scared," Jon said. He knelt and called out. "Ghost, come here. Come on. That's it."
The wolf pup padded closer and nuzzled at Jon's face, but he kept a wary eye on Tyrion Lannister, and
when the dwarf reached out to pet him, he drew back and bared his fangs in a silent snarl. "Shy, isn't he?"
Lannister observed.
"Sit, Ghost," Jon commanded. "That's it. Keep still." He looked up at the dwarf. "You can touch him
now. He won't move until I tell him to. I've been training him."
"I see," Lannister said. He ruffled the snow-white fur between Ghost's ears and said, "Nice wolf."
"If I wasn't here, he'd tear out your throat," Jon said. It wasn't actually true yet, but it would be.
"In that case, you had best stay close," the dwarf said. He cocked his oversized head to one side and
looked Jon over with his mismatched eyes. "I am Tyrion Lannister."
"I know," Jon said. He rose. Standing, he was taller than the dwarf. It made him feel strange.
"You're Ned Stark's bastard, aren't you?"
Jon felt a coldness pass right through him. He pressed his lips together and said nothing.
"Did I offend you?" Lannister said. "Sorry. Dwarfs don't have to be tactful. Generations of capering fools
in motley have won me the right to dress badly and say any damn thing that comes into my head." He
grinned. "You are the bastard, though."
"Lord Eddard Stark is my father," Jon admitted stiffly.
Lannister studied his face. "Yes," he said. "I can see it. You have more of the north in you than your
brothers."
"Half brothers," Jon corrected. He was pleased by the dwarf s comment, but he tried not to let it show.
"Let me give you some counsel, bastard," Lannister said. "Never forget what you are, for surely the
world will not. Make it your strength. Then it can never be your weakness. Armor yourself in it, and it
will never be used to hurt you."
Jon was in no mood for anyone's counsel. "What do you know about being a bastard?"
"All dwarfs are bastards in their father's eyes."
"You are your mother's trueborn son of Lannister."
"Am I" the dwarf replied, sardonic. "Do tell my lord father. MY mother died birthing me, and he's never


been sure."
"I don't even know who my mother was," Jon said.
"Some woman, no doubt. Most of them are." He favored Jon with a rueful grin. "Remember this, boy.
All dwarfs may be bastards, yet not all bastards need be dwarfs." And with that he turned and sauntered
back into the feast, whistling a tune. When he opened the door, the light from within threw his shadow
clear across the yard, and for just a moment Tyrion Lannister stood tall as a king.
CATELYN
0f all the rooms in Winterfell's Great Keep, Catelyn's bedchambers were the hottest. She seldom had to
light a fire. The castle had been built over natural hot springs, and the scalding waters rushed through its
walls and chambers like blood through a man's body, driving the chill from the stone halls, filling the glass
gardens with a moist warmth, keeping the earth from freezing. Open pools smoked day and night in a
dozen small courtyards. That was a little thing, in summer; in winter, it was the difference between life and
death.
Catelyn's bath was always hot and steaming, and her walls warm to the touch. The warmth reminded her
of Riverrun, of days in the sun with Lysa and Edmure, but Ned could never abide the heat. The Starks
were made for the cold, he would tell her, and she would laugh and tell him in that case they had certainly
built their castle in the wrong place.
So when they had finished, Ned rolled off and climbed from her bed, as he had a thousand times before.
He crossed the room, pulled back the heavy tapestries, and threw open the high narrow windows one by
one, letting the night air into the chamber.
The wind swirled around him as he stood facing the dark, naked and empty-handed. Catelyn pulled the
furs to her chin and watched him. He looked somehow smaller and more vulnerable, like the youth she
had wed in the sept at Riverrun, fifteen long years gone. Her loins
still ached from the urgency of his lovernaking. It was a good ache. She could feel his seed within her.
She prayed that it might quicken there. It had been three years since Rickon. She was not too old. She
could give him another son.
"I will refuse him," Ned said as he turned back to her. His eyes were haunted, his voice thick with doubt.
Catelyn sat up in the bed. "You cannot. You must not."
"My duties are here in the north. I have no wish to be Robert's Hand."
"He will not understand that. He is a king now, and kings are not like other men. If you refuse to serve
him, he will wonder why, and sooner or later he will begin to suspect that you oppose him. Can't you see
the danger that would put us in?"
Ned shook his head, refusing to believe. "Robert would never harm me or any of mine. We were closer
than brothers. He loves me. If I refuse him, he will roar and curse and bluster, and in a week we will
laugh about it together. I know the man!"


"You knew the man," she said. "The king is a stranger to you." Catelyn remembered the direwolf dead in
the snow, the broken antler lodged deep in her throat. She had to make him see. "Pride is everything to a
king, my lord. Robert came all this way to see you, to bring you these great honors, you cannot throw
them back in his face."
"Honors?" Ned laughed bitterly.
"In his eyes, yes," she said.
"And in yours?"
"And in mine," she blazed, angry now. Why couldn't he see? "He offers his own son in marriage to our
daughter, what else would you call that? Sansa might someday be queen. Her sons could rule from the
Wall to the mountains of Dorne. What is so wrong with that?"
"Gods, Catelyn, Sansa is only eleven," Ned said. "And Joffrey . . . Joffrey is . . ."
She finished for him. crown prince, and heir to the Iron Throne. And I was only twelve when my father
promised me to your brother Brandon."
That brought a bitter twist to Ned's mouth. "Brandon. Yes. Brandon would know what to do. He
always did. It was all meant for Brandon. You, Winterfell, everything. He was born to be a King's Hand
and a father to queens. I never asked for this cup to pass to me."
"Perhaps not," Catelyn said, "but Brandon is dead, and the cup has passed, and you must drink from it,
like it or not."
Ned turned away from her, back to the night. He stood staring out
in the darkness, watching the moon and the stars perhaps, or perhaps the sentries on the wall.
Catelyn softened then, to see his pain. Eddard Stark had married her in Brandon's place, as custom
decreed, but the shadow of his dead brother still lay between them, as did the other, the shadow of the
woman he would not name, the woman who had borne him his bastard son.
She was about to go to him when the knock came at the door, loud and unexpected. Ned turned,
frowning. "What is it?"
Desmond's voice came through the door. "My lord, Maester Luwin is without and begs urgent
audience."
"You told him I had left orders not to be disturbed?"
"Yes, my lord. He insists."
"Very well. Send him in."
Ned crossed to the wardrobe and slipped on a heavy robe. Catelyn realized suddenly how cold it had
become. She sat up in bed and pulled the furs to her chin. "Perhaps we should close the windows," she
suggested.


Ned nodded absently. Maester Luwin was shown in.
The maester was a small grey man. His eyes were grey, and quick, and saw much. His hair was grey,
what little the years had left him. His robe was grey wool, trimmed with white fur, the Stark colors. Its
great floppy sleeves had pockets hidden inside. Luwin was always tucking things into those sleeves and
producing other things from them: books, messages, strange artifacts, toys for the children. With all he
kept hidden in his sleeves, Catelyn was surprised that Maester Luwin could lift his arms at all.
The maester waited until the door had closed behind him before he spoke. "My lord," he said to Ned,
"pardon for disturbing your rest. I have been left a message."
Ned looked irritated. "Been left? By whom? Has there been a rider? I was not told."
"There was no rider, my lord. Only a carved wooden box, left on a table in my observatory while I
napped. My servants saw no one, but it must have been brought by someone in the king's party. We
have had no other visitors from the south."
"A wooden box, you say?" Catelyn said.
"Inside was a fine new lens for the observatory, from Myr by the look of it. The lenscrafters of Myr are
without equal."
Ned frowned. He had little patience for this sort of thing, Catelyn knew. "A lens," he said. "What has
that to do with me?"
"I asked the same question," Maester Luwin said. "Clearly there was more to this than the seeming."
Under the heavy weight of her furs, Catelyn shivered. "A lens is an instrument to help us see."
"Indeed it is." He fingered the collar of his order; a heavy chain worn tight around the neck beneath his
robe, each link forged from a different metal.
Catelyn could feel dread stirring inside her once again. "What is it that they would have us see more
clearly?"
"The very thing I asked myself." Maester Luwin drew a tightly rolled paper out of his sleeve. "I found the
true message concealed within a false bottom when I dismantled the box the lens had come in, but it is
not for my eyes."
Ned held out his hand. "Let me have it, then."
Luwin did not stir. "Pardons, my lord. The message is not for you either. It is marked for the eyes of the
Lady Catelyn, and her alone. May I approach?"
Catelyn nodded, not trusting to speak. The maester placed the paper on the table beside the bed. It was
sealed with a small blob of blue wax. Luwin bowed and began to retreat.
"Stay," Ned commanded him. His voice was grave. He looked at Catelyn. "What is it? My lady, you're
shaking."
"I'm afraid," she admitted. She reached out and took the letter in trembling hands. The furs dropped


away from her nakedness, forgotten. In the blue wax was the moon-and-falcon seal of House Arryn. "It's
from Lysa." Catelyn looked at her husband. "It will not make us glad," she told him. "There is grief in this
message, Ned. I can feel it."
Ned frowned, his face darkening. "Open it."
Catelyn broke the seal.
Her eyes moved over the words. At first they made no sense to her. Then she remembered. "Lysa took
no chances. When we were girls together, we had a private language, she and L"
"Can you read it?"
"Yes," Catelyn admitted.
"Then tell us."
"Perhaps I should withdraw," Maester Luwin said.
"No," Catelyn said. "We will need your counsel." She threw back the furs and climbed from the bed.
The night air was as cold as the grave on her bare skin as she padded across the room.
Maester Luwin averted his eyes. Even Ned looked shocked. "What are you doing?" he asked.
"Lighting a fire," Catelyn told him. She found a dressing gown and shrugged into it, then knelt over the
cold hearth.
"Maester Luwin-" Ned began.
"Maester Luwin has delivered all my children," Catelyn said. "This is no time for false modesty." She slid
the paper in among the kindling and placed the heavier logs on top of it.
Ned crossed the room, took her by the arm, and pulled her to her feet. He held her there, his face inches
from her. "My lady, tell me! What was this message?"
Catelyn stiffened in his grasp. "A warning," she said softly. "If we have the wits to hear."
His eyes searched her face. "Go on."
"Lysa says Jon Arryn was murdered."
His fingers tightened on her arm. "By whom?"
"The Lannisters," she told him. "The queen."
Ned released his hold on her arm. There were deep red marks on her skin. "Gods," he whispered. His
voice was hoarse. "Your sister is sick with grief. She cannot know what she is saying."
"She knows," Catelyn said. "Lysa is impulsive, yes, but this message was carefully planned, cleverly
hidden. She knew it meant death if her letter fell into the wrong hands. To risk so much, she must have
had more than mere suspicion." Catelyn looked to her husband. "Now we truly have no choice. You


must be Robert's Hand. You must go south with him and learn the truth."
She saw at once that Ned had reached a very different conclusion. "The only truths I know are here.
The south is a nest of adders I would do better to avoid."
Luwin plucked at his chain collar where it had chafed the soft skin of his throat. "The Hand of the King
has great power, my lord. Power to find the truth of Lord Arryn's death, to bring his killers to the king's
justice. Power to protect Lady Arryn and her son, if the worst be true."
Ned glanced helplessly around the bedchamber. Catelyn's heart went out to him, but she knew she
could not take him in her arms just then. First the victory must be won, for her children's sake. "You say
you love Robert like a brother. Would you leave your brother surrounded by Lannisters?"
"The Others take both of you," Ned muttered darkly. He turned away from them and went to the
window. She did not speak, nor did the maester. They waited, quiet, while Eddard Stark said a silent
farewell to the home he loved. When he turned away from the window at last, his voice was tired and full
of melancholy, and moisture glittered
faintly in the corners of his eyes. "My father went south once, to answer the summons of a king. He
never came home again."
"A different time," Maester Luwin said. "A different king."
"Yes," Ned said dully. He seated himself in a chair by the hearth. "Catelyn, you shall stay here in
Winterfell."
His words were like an icy draft through her heart. "No," she said, suddenly afraid. Was this to be her
punishment? Never to see his face again, nor to feel his arms around her?
"Yes," Ned said, in words that would brook no argument. "You must govern the north in my stead, while
I run Robert's errands. There must always be a Stark in Winterfell. Robb is fourteen. Soon enough, he
will be a man grown. He must learn to rule, and I will not be here for him. Make him part of your
councils. He must be ready when his time comes."
"Gods will, not for many years," Maester Luwin murmured.
"Maester Luwin, I trust you as I would my own blood. Give my wife your voice in all things great and
small. Teach my son the things he needs to know. Winter is coming."
Maester Luwin nodded gravely. Then silence fell, until Catelyn found her courage and asked the
question whose answer she most dreaded. "What of the other children?"
Ned stood, and took her in his arms, and held her face close to his. "Rickon is very young," he said
gently. "He should stay here with you and Robb. The others I would take with me."
"I could not bear it," Catelyn said, trembling.
"You must," he said. "Sansa must wed Joffrey, that is clear now, we must give them no grounds to
suspect our devotion. And it is past time that Arya learned the ways of a southron court. In a few years
she will be of an age to marry too."


Sansa would shine in the south, Catelyn thought to herself, and the gods knew that Arya needed
refinement. Reluctantly, she let go of them in her heart. But not Bran. Never Bran. "Yes," she said, "but
please, Ned, for the love you bear me, let Bran remain here at Winterfell. He is only seven."
"I was eight when my father sent me to foster at the Eyrie," Ned said. "Ser Rodrik tells me there is bad
feeling between Robb and Prince Joffrey. That is not healthy. Bran can bridge that distance. He is a
sweet boy, quick to laugh, easy to love. Let him grow up with the young princes, let him become their
friend as Robert became mine. Our House will be the safer for it."
He was right; Catelyn knew it. It did not make the pain any easier to bear. She would lose all four of
them, then: Ned, and both girls, and
her sweet, loving Bran. Only Robb and little Rickon would be left to her. She felt lonely already.
Winterfell was such a vast place. "Keep him off the walls, then," she said bravely. "You know how Bran
loves to climb."
Ned kissed the tears from her eyes before they could fall. "Thank you, my lady," he whispered. "This is
hard, I know."
"What of Jon Snow, my lord?" Maester Luwin asked.
Catelyn tensed at the mention of the name. Ned felt the anger in her, and pulled away.
Many men fathered bastards. Catelyn had grown up with that knowledge. It came as no surprise to her,
in the first year of her marriage, to learn that Ned had fathered a child on some girl chance met on
campaign. He had a man's needs, after all, and they had spent that year apart, Ned off at war in the south
while she remained safe in her father's castle at Riverrun. Her thoughts were more of Robb, the infant at
her breast, than of the husband she scarcely knew. He was welcome to whatever solace he might find
between battles. And if his seed quickened, she expected he would see to the child's needs.
He did more than that. The Starks were not like other men. Ned brought his bastard home with him, and
called him "son" for all the north to see. When the wars were over at last, and Catelyn rode to Winterfell,
Jon and his wet nurse had already taken up residence.
That cut deep. Ned would not speak of the mother, not so much as a word, but a castle has no secrets,
and Catelyn heard her maids repeating tales they heard from the lips of her husband's soldiers. They
whispered of Ser Arthur Dayne, the Sword of the Morning, deadliest of the seven knights of Aerys's
Kingsguard, and of how their young lord had slain him in single combat. And they told how afterward
Ned had carried Ser Arthur's sword back to the beautiful young sister who awaited him in a castle called
Starfall on the shores of the Summer Sea. The Lady Ashara Dayne, tall and fair, with haunting violet
eyes. It had taken her a fortnight to marshal her courage, but finally, in bed one night, Catelyn had asked
her husband the truth of it, asked him to his face.
That was the only time in all their years that Ned had ever frightened her. "Never ask me about Jon," he
said, cold as ice. "He is my blood, and that is all you need to know. And now I will learn where you
heard that name, my lady." She had pledged to obey; she told him; and from that day on, the whispering
had stopped, and Ashara Dayne's name was never heard in Winterfell again.
Whoever Jon's mother had been, Ned must have loved her fiercely, for nothing Catelyn said would
persuade him to send the boy away. It


was the one thing she could never forgive him. She had come to love her husband with all her heart, but
she had never found it in her to love Jon. She might have overlooked a dozen bastards for Ned's sake,
so long as they were out of sight. Jon was never out of sight, and as he grew, he looked more like Ned
than any of the trueborn sons she bore him. Somehow that made it worse. "Jon must go," she said now.
"He and Robb are close," Ned said. "I had hoped . . ."
"He cannot stay here," Catelyn said, cutting him off. "He is your son, not mine. I will not have him." It
was hard, she knew, but no less the truth. Ned would do the boy no kindness by leaving him here at
Winterfell.
The look Ned gave her was anguished. "You know I cannot take him south. There will be no place for
him at court. A boy with a bastard's name . . . you know what they will say of him. He will be shunned."
Catelyn armored her heart against the mute appeal in her husband's eyes. "They say your friend Robert
has fathered a dozen bastards himself."
"And none of them has ever been seen at court!" Ned blazed. "The Lann.ister woman has seen to that.
How can you be so damnably cruel, Catelyn? He is only a boy. He-"
His fury was on him. He might have said more, and worse, but Maester Luwin cut in. "Another solution
presents itself," he said, his voice quiet. "Your brother Benjen came to me about Jon a few days ago. It
seems the boy aspires to take the black."
Ned looked shocked. "He asked to join the Night's Watch?"
Catelyn said nothing. Let Ned work it out in his own mind; her voice would not be welcome now. Yet
gladly would she have kissed the maester just then. His was the perfect solution. Benjen Stark was a
Sworn Brother. Jon would be a son to him, the child he would never have. And in time the boy would
take the oath as well. He would father no sons who might someday contest with Catelyn's own
grandchildren for Winterfell.
Maester Luwin said, "There is great honor in service on the Wall, my lord."
"And even a bastard may rise high in the Night's Watch," Ned reflected. Still, his voice was troubled.
"Jon is so young. If he asked this when he was a man grown, that would be one thing, but a boy of
fourteen . . ."
"A hard sacrifice," Maester Luwin agreed. "Yet these are hard times, my lord. His road is no crueler
than yours or your lady's.11
Catelyn thought of the three children she must lose. It was not easy keeping silent then.
Ned turned away from them to gaze out the window, his long face silent and thoughtful. Finally he
sighed, and turned back. "Very well," he said to Maester Luwin. "I suppose it is for the best. I will speak
to Ben."
"When shall we tell Jon?" the maester asked.
"When I must. Preparations must be made. It will be a fortnight before we are ready to depart. I would
sooner let Jon enjoy these last few days. Summer will end soon enough, and childhood as well. When the


time comes, I will tell him myself."
ARYA
A rya's stitches were crooked again.
She frowned down at them with dismay and glanced over to where her sister Sansa sat among the other
girls. Sansa's needlework was exquisite. Everyone said so. "Sansa's work is as pretty as she is," Septa
Mordane told their lady mother once. "She has such fine, delicate hands." When Lady Catelyn had asked
about Arya, the septa had sniffed. "Arya has the hands of a blacksmith."
Arya glanced furtively across the room, worried that Septa Mordane might have read her thoughts, but
the septa was paying her no attention today. She was sitting with the Princess Myrcella, all smiles and
admiration. It was not often that the septa was privileged to instruct a royal princess in the womanly arts,
as she had said when the queen brought Myrcella to join them. Arya thought that Myrcella's stitches
looked a little crooked too, but you would never know it from the way Septa Mordane was cooing.
She studied her own work again, looking for some way to salvage it, then sighed and put down the
needle. She looked glumly at her sister. Sansa was chatting away happily as she worked. Beth Cassel,
Ser Rodrik's little girl, was sitting by her feet, listening to every word she said, and Jeyne Poole was
leaning over to whisper something in her ear.
"What are you talking about?" Arya asked suddenly.
Jeyne gave her a startled look, then giggled. Sansa looked abashed. Beth blushed. No one answered.
"Tell me," Arya said.
Jeyne glanced over to make certain that Septa Mordane was not listening. Myrcella said something then,
and the septa laughed along with the rest of the ladies.
"We were talking about the prince," Sansa said, her voice soft as a kiss.
Arya knew which prince she meant: Jofftey, of course. The tall, handsome one. Sansa got to sit with him
at the feast. Arya had to sit with the little fat one. Naturally.
"Joffrey likes your sister," Jeyne whispered, proud as if she had something to do with it. She was the
daughter of Winterfell's steward and Sansa's dearest friend. "He told her she was very beautiful."
"He's going to marry her," little Beth said dreamily, hugging herself. "Then Sansa will be queen of all the
realm."
Sansa had the grace to blush. She blushed prettily. She did everything prettily, Arya thought with dull
resentment. "Beth, you shouldn't make up stories," Sansa corrected the younger girl, gently stroking her
hair to take the harshness out of her words. She looked at Arya. "What did you think of Prince Joff,
sister? He's very gallant, don't you think?"
"Jon says he looks like a girl," Arya said.


Sansa sighed as she stitched. "Poor Jon," she said. "He gets jealous because he's a bastard."
"He's our brother," Arya said, much too loudly. Her voice cut through the afternoon quiet of the tower
room.
Septa Mordane raised her eyes. She had a bony face, sharp eyes, and a thin lipless mouth made for
frowning. It was frowning now. "What are you talking about, children?"
"Our half brother," Sansa corrected, soft and precise. She smiled for the septa. "Arya and I were
remarking on how pleased we were to have the princess with us today," she said.
Septa Mordane nodded. "Indeed. A great honor for us all." Princess Myrcella smiled uncertainly at the
compliment. "Arya, why aren't you at work?" the septa asked. She rose to her feet, starched skirts
rustling as she started across the room. "Let me see your stitches."
Arya wanted to scream. It was just like Sansa to go and attract the septa's attention. "Here," she said,
surrendering up her work.
The septa examined the fabric. "Arya, Arya, Arya," she said. "This will not do. This will not do at all."
Everyone was looking at her. It was too much. Sansa was too well bred to smile at her sister's disgrace,
but Jeyne was smirking on her
behalf. Even Princess Myrcella looked sorry for her. Arya felt tears filling her eyes. She pushed herself
out of her chair and bolted for the door.
Septa Mordane called after her. "Arya, come back here! Don't you take another step! Your lady mother
will hear of this. In front of our royal princess too! You'll shame us all!"
Arya stopped at the door and turned back, biting her lip. The tears were running down her cheeks now.
She managed a stiff little bow to Myrcella. "By your leave, my lady."
Myrcella blinked at her and looked to her ladies for guidance. But if she was uncertain, Septa Mordane
was not. "Just where do you think you are going, Arya?" the septa demanded.
Arya glared at her. "I have to go shoe a horse," she said sweetly, taking a brief satisfaction in the shock
on the septa's face. Then she whirled and made her exit, running down the steps as fast as her feet would
take her.
It wasn't fair. Sansa had everything. Sansa was two years older; maybe by the time Arya had been born,
there had been nothing left. Often it felt that way. Sansa could sew and dance and sing. She wrote
poetry. She knew how to dress. She played the high harp and the bells. Worse, she was beautiful. Sansa
had gotten their mother's fine high cheekbones and the thick auburn hair of the Tullys. Arya took after
their lord father. Her hair was a lusterless brown, and her face was long and solemn. Jeyne used to call
her Arya Horseface, and neigh whenever she came near. It hurt that the one thing Arya could do better
than her sister was ride a horse. Well, that and manage a household. Sansa had never had much of a
head for figures. If she did marry Prince Joff, Arya hoped for his sake that he had a good steward.
Nymeria was waiting for her in the guardroom at the base of the stairs. She bounded to her feet as soon
as she caught sight of Arya. Arya grinned. The wolf pup loved her, even if no one else did. They went
everywhere together, and Nymeria slept in her room, at the foot of her bed. If Mother had not forbidden


it, Arya would gladly have taken the wolf with her to needlework. Let Septa Mordane complain about
her stitches then.
Nymeria nipped eagerly at her hand as Arya untied her. She had yellow eyes. When they caught the
sunlight, they gleamed like two golden coins. Arya had named her after the warrior queen of the Rhoyne,
who had led her people across the narrow sea. That had been a great scandal too. Sansa, of course, had
named her pup "Lady." Arya made a face and hugged the wolfling tight. Nymeria licked her ear, and she
giggled.
By now Septa Mordane would certainly have sent word to her lady mother. If she went to her room,
they would find her. Arya did not care to be found. She had a better notion. The boys were at practice in
the yard. She wanted to see Robb put gallant Prince Joffrey flat on his back. "Come," she whispered to
Nymeria. She got up and ran, the wolf coming hard at her heels.
There was a window in the covered bridge between the armory and the Great Keep where you had a
view of the whole yard. That was where they headed.
They arrived, flushed and breathless, to find Jon seated on the sill, one leg drawn up languidly to his chin.
He was watching the action, so absorbed that he seemed unaware of her approach until his white wolf
moved to meet them. Nymeria stalked closer on wary feet. Ghost, already larger than his litter mates,
smelled her, gave her ear a careful nip, and settled back down.
Jon gave her a curious look. "Shouldn't you be working on your stitches, little sister?"
Arya made a face at him. "I wanted to see them fight."
He smiled. "Come here, then."
Arya climbed up on the window and sat beside him, to a chorus of thuds and grunts from the yard
below.
To her disappointment, it was the younger boys drilling. Bran was so heavily padded he looked as
though he had belted on a featherbed, and Prince Tommen, who was plump to begin with, seemed
positively round. They were huffing and puffing and hitting at each other with padded wooden swords
under the watchful eye of old Ser Rodrik Cassel, the master-at-arms, a great stout keg of a man with
magnificent white cheek whiskers. A dozen spectators, man and boy, were calling out encouragement,
Robb's voice the loudest among them. She spotted Theon Greyjoy beside him, his black doublet
emblazoned with the golden kraken of his House, a look of wry contempt on his face. Both of the
combatants were staggering. Arya judged that they had been at it awhile.
"A shade more exhausting than needlework," Jon observed.
"A shade more fun than needlework," Arya gave back at him. Jon grinned, reached over, and messed up
her hair. Arya flushed. They had always been close. Jon had their father's face, as she did. They were the
only ones. Robb and Sansa and Bran and even little Rickon all took after the Tullys, with easy smiles and
fire in their hair. When Arya had been little, she had been afraid that meant that she was a bastard too. It
been Jon she had gone to in her fear, and Jon who had reassured her.
64 GEORGL R.R. MARTIN
"Why aren't you down in the yard?" Arya asked him.


He gave her a half smile. "Bastards are not allowed to damage young princes," he said. "Any bruises
they take in the practice yard must come from trueborn swords."
"Oh." Arya felt abashed. She should have realized. For the second time today, Arya reflected that life
was not fair.
She watched her little brother whack at Tommen. "I could do just as good as Bran," she said. "He's only
seven. I'm nine."
Jon looked her over with all his fourteen-year-old wisdom. "You're too skinny," he said. He took her
arm to feel her muscle. Then he sighed and shook his head. "I doubt you could even lift a longsword, little
sister, never mind swing one."
Arya snatched back her arm and glared at him. Jon messed up her hair again. They watched Bran and
Tommen circle each other.
"You see Prince Joffrey?" Jon asked.
She hadn't, not at first glance, but when she looked again she found him to the back, under the shade of
the high stone wall. He was surrounded by men she did not recognize, young squires in the livery of
Lannister and Baratheon, strangers all. There were a few older men among them; knights, she surmised.
"Look at the arms on his surcoat," Jon suggested.
Arya looked. An ornate shield had been embroidered on the prince's padded surcoat. No doubt the
needlework was exquisite. The arms were divided down the middle; on one side was the crowned stag
of the royal House, on the other the lion of Lannister.
"The Lannisters are proud," Jon observed. "You'd think the royal sigil would be sufficient, but no. He
makes his mother's House equal in honor to the king's."
"The woman is important too!" Arya protested.
Jon chuckled. "Perhaps you should do the same thing, little sister. Wed Tully to Stark in your arms."
"A wolf with a fish in its mouth?" It made her laugh. "That would look silly. Besides, if a girl can't fight,
why should she have a coat of arms?"
Jon shrugged. "Girls get the arms but not the swords. Bastards get the swords but not the arms. I did not
make the rules, little sister."
There was a shout from the courtyard below. Prince Tommen was rolling in the dust, trying to get up and
failing. All the padding made him look like a turtle on its back. Bran was standing over him with upraised
wooden sword, ready to whack him again once he regained his feet. The men began to laugh.
"Enough!" Ser Rodrik called out. He gave the prince a hand and
yanked him back to his feet. "Well fought. Lew, Donnis, help them out of their armor." He looked
around. "Prince Joffrey, Robb, will you go another round?"


Robb, already sweaty from a previous bout, moved forward eagerly. "Gladly."
Joffrey moved into the sunlight in response to Rodrik's summons. His hair shone like spun gold. He
looked bored. "This is a game for children, Ser Rodrik."
Theon Greyjoy gave a sudden bark of laughter. "You are children," he said derisively.
"Robb may be a child," Joffrey said. "I am a prince. And I grow tired of swatting at Starks with a play
sword."
"You got more swats than you gave, Joff," Robb said. "Are you afraid?"
Prince Joffrey looked at him. "Oh, terrified," he said. "You're so much older." Some of the Lannister men
laughed.
Jon looked down on the scene with a frown. "Joffrey is truly a little shit," he told Arya.
Ser Rodrik tugged thoughtfully at his white whiskers. "What are you suggesting?" he asked the prince.
"Live steel."
"Done," Robb shot back. "You'll be sorry!"
The master-at-arms put a hand on Robb's shoulder to quiet him. "Live steel is too dangerous. I will
permit you tourney swords, with blunted edges."
Joffrey said nothing, but a man strange to Arya, a tall knight with black hair and burn scars on his face,
pushed forward in front of the prince. "This is your prince. Who are you to tell him he may not have an
edge on his sword, ser?"
"Master-at-arms of Winterfell, Clegane, and you would do well not to forget it."
"Are you training women here?" the burned man wanted to know. He was muscled like a bull.
"I am training knights," Ser Rodrik said pointedly. "They will have steel when they are ready. When they
are of an age."
The burned man looked at Robb. "How old are you, boy?"
"Fourteen," Robb said.
"I killed a man at twelve. You can be sure it was not with a blunt sword."
Arya could see Robb bristle. His pride was wounded. He turned on Ser Rodrik. "Let me do it. I can
beat him."
"Beat him with a tourney blade, then," Ser Rodrik said.
Joffrey shrugged. "Come and see me when you're older, Stark. If you're not too old." There was
laughter from the Lannister men.


Robb's curses rang through the yard. Arya covered her mouth in shock. Theon Greyjoy seized Robb's
arm to keep him away from the prince. Ser Rodrik tugged at his whiskers in dismay.
Joffrey feigned a yawn and turned to his younger brother. "Come, Tommen," he said. "The hour of play
is done. Leave the children to their frolics."
That brought more laughter from the Lannisters, more curses from Robb. Ser Rodrik's face was
beet-red with fury under the white of his whiskers. Theon kept Robb locked in an iron grip until the
princes and their party were safely away.
Jon watched them leave, and Arya watched Jon. His face had grown as still as the pool at the heart of
the godswood. Finally he climbed down off the window. "The show is done," he said. He bent to scratch
Ghost behind the ears. The white wolf rose and rubbed against him. "You had best run back to your
room, little sister. Septa Mordane will surely be lurking. The longer you hide, the sterner the penance.
You'll be sewing all through winter. When the spring thaw comes, they will find your body with a needle
still locked tight between your frozen fingers."
Arya didn't think it was funny. "I hate needlework!" she said with passion. "It's not fair!"
"Nothing is fair," Jon said. He messed up her hair again and walked away from her, Ghost moving
silently beside him. Nymeria started to follow too, then stopped and came back when she saw that Arya
was not coming.
Reluctantly she turned in the other direction.
It was worse than Jon had thought. It wasn't Septa Mordane waiting in her room. It was Septa Mordane
and her mother.
BRAN
The hunt left at dawn. The king wanted wild boar at the feast tonight. Prince Joffrey rode with his father,
so Robb had been allowed to join the hunters as well. Uncle Benjen, Jory, Theon Greyjoy, Ser Rodrik,
and even the queen's funny little brother had all ridden out with them. It was the last hunt, after all. On the
morrow they left for the south.
Bran had been left behind with Jon and the girls and Rickon. But Rickon was only a baby and the girls
were only girls and Jon and his wolf were nowhere to be found. Bran did not look for him very hard. He
thought Jon was angry at him. Jon seemed to be angry at everyone these days. Bran did not know why.
He was going with Uncle Ben to the Wall, to join the Night's Watch. That was almost as good as going
south with the king. Robb was the one they were leaving behind, not Jon.
For days, Bran could scarcely wait to be off. He was going to ride the kingsroad on a horse of his own,
not a pony but a real horse. His father would be the Hand of the King, and they were going to live in the
red castle at King's Landing, the castle the Dragonlords had built. Old Nan said there were ghosts there,
and dungeons where terrible things had been done, and dragon heads on the walls. It gave Bran a shiver
just to think of it, but he was not afraid. How could he be afraid?
His father would be with him, and the king with all his knights and sworn swords.


Bran was going to be a knight himself someday, one of the Kingsguard. Old Nan said they were the
finest swords in all the realm. There were only seven of them, and they wore white armor and had no
wives or children, but lived only to serve the king. Bran knew all the stories. Their names were like music
to him. Serwyn of the Mirror Shield. Ser Ryam Redwyne. Prince Aemon the Dragonknight. The twins
Ser Erryk and Ser Arryk, who had died on one another's swords hundreds of years ago, when brother
fought sister in the war the singers called the Dance of the Dragons. The White Bull, Gerold Hightower.
Ser Arthur Dayne, the Sword of the Morning. Barristan the Bold.
Two of the Kingsguard had come north with King Robert. Bran had watched them with fascination,
never quite daring to speak to them. Ser Boros was a bald man with a jowly face, and Ser Meryn had
droopy eyes and a beard the color of rust. Ser Jaime Lannister looked more like the knights in the
stories, and he was of the Kingsguard too, but Robb said he had killed the old mad king and shouldn't
count anymore. The greatest living knight was Ser Barristan Selmy, Barristan the Bold, the Lord
Commander of the Kingsguard. Father had promised that they would meet Ser Barristan when they
reached King's Landing, and Bran had been marking the days on his wall, eager to depart, to see a world
he had only dreamed of and begin a life he could scarcely imagine.
Yet now that the last day was at hand, suddenly Bran felt lost. Winterfell had been the only home he had
ever known. His father had told him that he ought to say his farewells today, and he had tried. After the
hunt had ridden out, he wandered through the castle with his wolf at his side, intending to visit the ones
who would be left behind, Old Nan and Gage the cook, Mikken in his smithy, Hodor the stableboy who
smiled so much and took care of his pony and never said anything but "Hodor," the man in the glass
gardens who gave him a blackberry when he came to visit . . .
But it was no good. He had gone to the stable first, and seen his pony there in its stall, except it wasn't
his pony anymore, he was getting a real horse and leaving the pony behind, and all of a sudden Bran just
wanted to sit down and cry. He turned and ran off before Hodor and the other stableboys could see the
tears in his eyes. That was the end of his farewells. Instead Bran spent the morning alone in the
godswood, trying to teach his wolf to fetch a stick, and failing. The wolfling was smarter than any of the
hounds in his father's kennel and Bran would
have sworn he understood every word that was said to him, but he showed very little interest in chasing
sticks.
He was still trying to decide on a name. Robb was calling his Grey Wind, because he ran so fast. Sansa
had named hers Lady, and Arya named hers after some old witch queen in the songs, and little Rickon
called his Shaggydog, which Bran thought was a pretty stupid name for a direwolf. Jon's wolf, the white
one, was Ghost. Bran wished he had thought of that first, even though his wolf wasn't white. He had tried
a hundred names in the last fortnight, but none of them sounded right.
Finally he got tired of the stick game and decided to go climbing. He hadn't been up to the broken tower
for weeks with everything that had happened, and this might be his last chance.
He raced across the godswood, taking the long way around to avoid the pool where the heart tree grew.
The heart tree had always frightened him; trees ought not have eyes, Bran thought, or leaves that looked
like hands. His wolf came sprinting at his heels. "You stay here," he told him at the base of the sentinel
tree near the armory wall. "Lie down. That's right. Now stay-"
The wolf did as he was told. Bran scratched him behind the ears, then turned away, jumped, grabbed a
low branch, and pulled himself up. He was halfway up the tree, moving easily from limb to limb, when the
wolf got to his feet and began to howl.


Bran looked back down. His wolf fell silent, staring up at him through slitted yellow eyes. A strange chill
went through him. He began to climb again. Once more the wolf howled. "Quiet," he yelled. "Sit down.
Stay. You're worse than Mother." The howling chased him all the way up the tree, until finally he jumped
off onto the armory roof and out of sight.
The rooftops of Winterfell were Bran's second home. His mother often said that Bran could climb before
he could walk. Bran could not remember when he first learned to walk, but he could not remember when
he started to climb either, so he supposed it must be true.
To a boy, Winterfell was a grey stone labyrinth of walls and towers and courtyards and tunnels
spreading out in all directions. In the older parts of the castle, the halls slanted up and down so that you
couldn't even be sure what floor you were on. The place had grown over the centuries like some
monstrous stone tree, Maester Luwin told him once, and its branches were gnarled and thick and
twisted, its roots sunk deep into the earth.
When he got out from under it and scrambled up near the sky, Bran could see all of Winterfell in a
glance. He liked the way it looked, spread out beneath him, only birds wheeling over his head while all
the
life of the castle went on below. Bran could perch for hours among the shapeless, rain-worn gargoyles
that brooded over the First Keep, watching it all: the men drilling with wood and steel in the yard, the
cooks tending their vegetables in the glass garden, restless dogs running back and forth in the kennels, the
silence of the godswood, the girls gossiping beside the washing well. It made him feel like he was lord of
the castle, in a way even Robb would never know.
It taught him Winterfell's secrets too. The builders had not even leveled the earth; there were hills and
valleys behind the walls of Winterfell. There was a covered bridge that went from the fourth floor of the
bell tower across to the second floor of the rookery. Bran knew about that. And he knew you could get
inside the inner wall by the south gate, climb three floors and run all the way around Winterfell through a
narrow tunnel in the stone, and then come out on ground level at the north gate, with a hundred feet of
wall looming over you. Even Maester Luwin didn't know that, Bran was convinced.
His mother was terrified that one day Bran would slip off a wall and kill himself. He told her that he
wouldn't, but she never believed him. Once she made him promise that he would stay on the ground. He
had managed to keep that promise for almost a fortnight, miserable every day, until one night he had gone
out the window of his bedroom when his brothers were fast asleep.
He confessed his crime the next day in a fit of guilt. Lord Eddard ordered him to the godswood to
cleanse himself. Guards were posted to see that Bran remained there alone all night to reflect on his
disobedience. The next morning Bran was nowhere to be seen. They finally found him fast asleep in the
upper branches of the tallest sentinel in the grove.
As angry as he was, his father could not help but laugh. "You're not my son," he told Bran when they
fetched him down, "you're a squirrel. So be it. If you must climb, then climb, but try not to let your
mother see you."
Bran did his best, although he did not think he ever really footed her. Since his father would not forbid it,
she turned to others. Old Nan told him a story about a bad little boy who climbed too high and was
struck down by lightning, and how afterward the crows came to peck out his eyes. Bran was not
impressed. There were crows' nests atop the broken tower, where no one ever went but him, and


sometimes he filled his pockets with corn before he climbed up there and the crows ate it right out of his
hand. None of them had ever shown the slightest bit of interest in pecking out his eyes.
Later, Maester Luwin built a little pottery boy and dressed him in
Bran's clothes and flung him off the wall into the yard below, to demonstrate what would happen to Bran
if he fell. That had been fun, but afterward Bran just looked at the maester and said, "I'm not made of
clay. And anyhow, I never fall."
Then for a while the guards would chase him whenever they saw him on the roofs, and try to haul him
down. That was the best time of all. It was like playing a game with his brothers, except that Bran always
won. None of the guards could climb half so well as Bran, not even Jory. Most of the time they never
saw him anyway. People never looked up. That was another thing he liked about climbing; it was almost
like being invisible.
He liked how it felt too, pulling himself up a wall stone by stone, fingers and toes digging hard into the
small crevices between. He always took off his boots and went barefoot when he climbed; it made him
feel as if he had four hands instead of two. He liked the deep, sweet ache it left in the muscles afterward.
He liked the way the air tasted way up high, sweet and cold as a winter peach. He liked the birds: the
crows in the broken tower, the tiny little sparrows that nested in cracks between the stones, the ancient
owl that slept in the dusty loft above the old armory. Bran knew them all.
Most of all, he liked going places that no one else could go, and seeing the grey sprawl of Winterfell in a
way that no one else ever saw it. It made the whole castle Bran's secret place.
His favorite haunt was the broken tower. Once it had been a watchtower, the tallest in Winterfell. A long
time ago, a hundred years before even his father had been born, a lightning strike had set it afire. The top
third of the structure had collapsed inward, and the tower had never been rebuilt. Sometimes his father
sent ratters into the base of the tower, to clean out the nests they always found among the jumble of fallen
stones and charred and rotten beams. But no one ever got up to the jagged top of the structure now
except for Bran and the crows.
He knew two ways to get there. You could climb straight up the side of the tower itself, but the stones
were loose, the mortar that held them together long gone to ash, and Bran never liked to put his full
weight on them.
The best way was to start from the godswood, shinny up the tall sentinel, and cross over the armory and
the guards hall, leaping roof to roof, barefoot so the guards wouldn't hear you overhead. That brought
you up to the blind side of the First Keep, the oldest part of the castle, a squat round fortress that was
taller than it looked. Only rats and spiders lived there now but the old stones still made for good climbing.
You could go straight up to where the gargoyles leaned out blindly
over empty space, and swing from gargoyle to gargoyle, hand over hand, around to the north side. From
there, if you really stretched, you could reach out and pull yourself over to the broken tower where it
leaned close. The last part was the scramble up the blackened stones to the eyrie, no more than ten feet,
and then the crows would come round to see if you'd brought any corn.
Bran was moving from gargoyle to gargoyle with the ease of long practice when he heard the voices. He
was so startled he almost lost his grip. The First Keep had been empty all his life.
"I do not like it," a woman was saying. There was a row of windows beneath him, and the voice was


drifting out of the last window on this side. "You should be the Hand."
"Gods forbid," a man's voice replied lazily. "It's not an honor I'd want. There's far too much work
involved."
Bran hung, listening, suddenly afraid to go on. They might glimpse his feet if he tried to swing by.
"Don't you see the danger this puts us in?" the woman said. "Robert loves the man like a brother."
"Robert can barely stomach his brothers. Not that I blame him. Stannis would be enough to give anyone
indigestion."
"Don't play the fool. Stannis and Renly are one thing, and Eddard Stark is quite another. Robert will
listen to Stark. Damn them both. I should have insisted that he name you, but I was certain Stark would
refuse him."
"We ought to count ourselves fortunate," the man said. "The king might as easily have named one of his
brothers, or even Littlefinger, gods help us. Give me honorable enemies rather than ambitious ones, and
I'll sleep more easily by night."
They were talking about Father, Bran realized. He wanted to hear more. A few more feet . . . but they
would see him if he swung out in front of the window.
"We will have to watch him carefully," the woman said.
"I would sooner watch you," the man said. He sounded bored. "Come back here."
"Lord Eddard has never taken any interest in anything that happened south of the Neck," the woman
said. "Never. I tell you, he means to move against us. Why else would he leave the seat of his power?"
"A hundred reasons. Duty. Honor. He yearns to write his name large across the book of history, to get
away from his wife, or both. Perhaps he just wants to be warm for once in his life."
"His wife is Lady Arryn's sister. It's a wonder Lysa was not here to greet us with her accusations."
Bran looked down. There was a narrow ledge beneath the window, only a few inches wide. He tried to
lower himself toward it. Too far. He would never reach.
"You fret too much. Lysa Arryn is a frightened cow."
"That frightened cow shared Jon Arryn's bed."
"If she knew anything, she would have gone to Robert before she fled King's Landing."
"When he had already agreed to foster that weakling son of hers at Casterly Rock? I think not. She
knew the boy's life would be hostage to her silence. She may grow bolder now that he's safe atop the
Eyrie."
"Mothers." The man made the word sound like a curse. "I think birthing does something to your minds.
You are all mad." He laughed. It was a bitter sound. "Let Lady Arryn grow as bold as she likes.
Whatever she knows, whatever she thinks she knows, she has no proof." He paused a moment. "Or


does she?"
"Do you think the king will require proof?" the woman said. "I tell you, he loves me not."
"And whose fault is that, sweet sister?"
Bran studied the ledge. He could drop down. It was too narrow to land on, but if he could catch hold as
he fell past, pull himself up . . . except that might make a noise, draw them to the window. He was not
sure what he was hearing, but he knew it was not meant for his ears.
"You are as blind as Robert," the woman was saying.
"If you mean I see the same thing, yes," the man said. "I see a man who would sooner die than betray his
king."
"He betrayed one already, or have you forgotten?" the woman said. "Oh, I don't deny he's loyal to
Robert, that's obvious. What happens when Robert dies and Joff takes the throne? And the sooner that
comes to pass, the safer we'll all be. My husband grows more restless every day. Having Stark beside
him will only make him worse. He's still in love with the sister, the insipid little dead sixteen-year-old.
How long till he decides to put me aside for some new Lyanna?"
Bran was suddenly very frightened. He wanted nothing so much as to go back the way he had come, to
find his brothers. Only what would he tell them? He had to get closer, Bran realized. He had to see who
was talking.
The man sighed. "You should think less about the future and more about the pleasures at hand."
"Stop that!" the woman said. Bran heard the sudden slap of flesh on flesh, then the man's laughter.
Bran pulled himself up, climbed over the gargoyle, crawled out onto the roof. This was the easy way. He
moved across the roof to the next gargoyle, right above the window of the room where they were talking.
"All this talk is getting very tiresome, sister," the man said. "Come here and be quiet."
Bran sat astride the gargoyle, tightened his legs around it, and swung himself around, upside down. He
hung by his legs and slowly stretched his head down toward the window. The world looked strange
upside down. A courtyard swam dizzily below him, its stones still wet with melted snow.
Bran looked in the window.
Inside the room, a man and a woman were wrestling. They were both naked. Bran could not tell who
they were. The man's back was to him, and his body screened the woman from view as he pushed her
up against a wall.
There were soft, wet sounds. Bran realized they were kissing. He watched, wide-eyed and frightened,
his breath tight in his throat. The man had a hand down between her legs, and he must have been hurting
her there, because the woman started to moan, low in her throat. "Stop it," she said, "stop it, stop it. Oh,
please . . ." But her voice was low and weak, and she did not push him away. Her hands buried
themselves in his hair, his tangled golden hair, and pulled his face down to her breast.
Bran saw her face. Her eyes were closed and her mouth was open, moaning. Her golden hair swung


from side to side as her head moved back and forth, but still he recognized the queen.
He must have made a noise. Suddenly her eyes opened, and she was staring right at him. She screamed.
Everything happened at once then. ' The woman pushed the man
away wildly, shouting and pointing. Bran tried to pull himself up,
bending double as he reached for the gargoyle. He *as in too much of
a hurry. His hand scraped uselessly across smooth stone, and in his
panic his legs slipped, and suddenly he was failing. There was an
instant of vertigo, a sickening lurch as the window flashed past. He
shot out a hand, grabbed for the ledge, lost it, caught it again with his
other hand. He swung against the building, hard. The impact took the
breath out of him. Bran dangled, one-handed, panting.
Faces appeared in the window above him.
The queen. And now Bran recognized the man beside her. They looked as much alike as reflections in a
mirror.
"He saw us," the woman said shrilly.
"So he did," the man said.
Bran's fingers started to slip. He grabbed the ledge with his other hand. Fingernails dug into unyielding
stone. The man reached down. "Take my hand," he said. "Before you fall."
Bran seized his arm and held on tight with all his strength. The man yanked him up to the ledge. "What
are you doing?" the woman demanded.
The man ignored her. He was very strong. He stood Bran up on the sill. "How old are you, boy?"
"Seven," Bran said, shaking with relief. His fingers had dug deep gouges in the man's forearm. He let go
sheepishly.
The man looked over at the woman. "The things I do for love," he said with loathing. He gave Bran a
shove.
Screaming, Bran went backward out the window into empty air. There was nothing to grab on to. The
courtyard rushed up to meet him.
Somewhere off in the distance, a wolf was howling. Crows circled the broken tower, waiting for corn.


TYRION
Somewhere in the great stone maze of Winterfell, a wolf howled. The sound hung over the castle like a
flag of mourning.
Tyrion Lannister looked up from his books and shivered, though the library was snug and warm.
Something about the howling of a wolf took a man right out of his here and now and left him in a dark
forest of the mind, running naked before the pack.
When the direwolf howled again, Tyrion shut the heavy leatherbound cover on the book he was reading,
a hundredyear-old discourse on the changing of the seasons by a long-dead maester. He covered a yawn
with the back of his hand. His reading lamp was flickering, its oil all but gone, as dawn light leaked
through the high windows. He had been at it all night, but that was nothing new. Tyrion Lannister was not
much a one for sleeping.
His legs were stiff and sore as he eased down off the bench. He massaged some life back into them and
limped heavily to the table where the septon was snoring softly, his head pillowed on an open book in
front of him. Tyrion glanced at the title. A life of the Grand Maester Aethelmure, no wonder. "Chayle," he
said softly. The young man jerked up, blinking, confused, the crystal of his order swinging wildly on its
silver chain. "I'm off to break my fast. See that you return the books to the shelves. Be gentle with the
Valyrian scrolls, the parchment is very dry. Ayrmidon's Engines of War is quite rare, and yours is
the only complete copy I've ever seen." Chayle gaped at him, still halfasleep. Patiently, Tyrion repeated
his instructions, then clapped the septon on the shoulder and left him to his tasks.
Outside, Tyrion swallowed a lungful of the cold morning air and began his laborious descent of the steep
stone steps that corkscrewed around the exterior of the library tower. It was slow going; the steps were
cut high and narrow, while his legs were short and twisted. The rising sun had not yet cleared the walls of
Winterfell, but the men were already hard at it in the yard below. Sandor Clegane's rasping voice drifted
up to him. "The boy is a long time dying. I wish he would be quicker about it."
Tyrion glanced down and saw the Hound standing with young Joffrey as squires swarmed around them.
"At least he dies quietly," the prince replied. "It's the wolf that makes the noise. I could scarce sleep last
night."
Clegane cast a long shadow across the hard-packed earth as his squire lowered the black helm over his
head. "I could silence the creature, if it please you," he said through his open visor. His boy placed a
longsword in his hand. He tested the weight of it, slicing at the cold morning air. Behind him, the yard
rang to the clangor of steel on steel.
The notion seemed to delight the prince. "Send a dog to kill a dog!" he exclaimed. "Winterfell is so
infested with wolves, the Starks would never miss one."
Tyrion hopped off the last step onto the yard. "I beg to differ, nephew," he said. "The Starks can count
past six. Unlike some princes I might name."
Joffrey had the grace at least to blush.


"A voice from nowhere," Sandor said. He peered through his helm, looking this way and that. "Spirits of
the air!"
The prince laughed, as he always laughed when his bodyguard did this mummer's farce. Tyrion was used
to it. "Down here."
The tall man peered down at the ground, and pretended to notice him. "The little lord Tyrion," he said.
"My pardons. I did not see you standing there."
"I am in no mood for your insolence today." Tyrion turned to his nephew. "Joffrey, it is past time you
called on Lord Eddard and his lady, to offer them your comfort."
Joffrey looked as petulant as only a boy prince can look. "What good will my comfort do them?"
"None," Tyrion said. "Yet it is expected of you. Your absence has been noted."
"The Stark boy is nothing to me," Joffrey said. "I cannot abide the wailing of women."
Tyrion Lannister reached up and slapped his nephew hard across the face. The boy's cheek began to
redden.
"One word," Tyrion said, "and I will hit you again."
"I'm going to tell Mother!" Joffrey exclaimed.
Tyrion hit him again. Now both cheeks flamed.
"You tell your mother," Tyrion told him. "But first you get yourself to Lord and Lady Stark, and you fall
to your knees in front of them, and you tell them how very sorry you are, and that you are at their service
if there is the slightest thing you can do for them or theirs in this desperate hour, and that all your prayers
go with them. Do you understand? Do you?"
The boy looked as though he was going to cry. Instead, he managed a weak nod. Then he turned and
fled headlong from the yard, holding his cheek. Tyrion watched him run.
A shadow fell across his face. He turned to find Clegane looming overhead like a cliff. His soot-dark
armor seemed to blot out the sun. He had lowered the visor on his helm. It was fashioned in the likeness
of a snarling black hound, fearsome to behold, but Tyrion had always thought it a great improvement
over Clegane's hideously burned face.
"The prince will remember that, little lord," the Hound warned him. The helm turned his laugh into a
hollow rumble.
"I pray he does," Tyrion Lannister replied. "If he forgets, be a good dog and remind him." He glanced
around the courtyard. "Do you know where I might find my brother?"
"Breaking fast with the queen."
"Ah," Tyrion said. He gave Sandor Clegane a perfunctory nod and walked away as briskly as his
stunted legs would carry him, whistling. He pitied the first knight to try the Hound today. The man did
have a temper.


A cold, cheerless meal had been laid out in the morning room of the Guest House. Jaime sat at table with
Cersei and the children, talking in low, hushed voices.
"Is Robert still abed?" Tyrion asked as he seated himself, uninvited, at the table.
His sister peered at him with the same expression of faint distaste she had worn since the day he was
born. "The king has not slept at all," she told him. "He is with Lord Eddard. He has taken their sorrow
deeply to heart."
"He has a large heart, our Robert," Jaime said with a lazy smile. There was very little that Jaime took
seriously. Tyrion knew that about
his brother, and forgave it. During all the terrible long years of his childhood, only Jaime had ever shown
him the smallest measure of affection or respect, and for that Tyrion was willing to forgive him most
anything.
A servant approached. "Bread," Tyrion told him, "and two of those little fish, and a mug of that good
dark beer to wash them down. Oh, and some bacon. Burn it until it turns black." The man bowed and
moved off. Tyrion turned back to his siblings. Twins, male and female. They looked very much the part
this morning. Both had chosen a deep green that matched their eyes. Their blond curls were all a
fashionable tumble, and gold ornaments shone at wrists and fingers and throats.
Tyrion wondered what it would be like to have a twin, and decided that he would rather not know. Bad
enough to face himself in a looking glass every day. Another him was a thought too dreadful to
contemplate.
Prince Tommen spoke up. "Do you have news of Bran, Uncle?"
"I stopped by the sickroom last night," Tyrion announced. "There was no change. The maester thought
that a hopeful sign."
"I don't want Brandon to die," Tommen said timorously. He was a sweet boy. Not like his brother, but
then Jaime and Tyrion were somewhat less than peas in a pod themselves.
"Lord Eddard had a brother named Brandon as well," Jaime mused. "One of the hostages murdered by
Targaryen. It seems to be an unlucky name."
"Oh, not so unlucky as all that, surely," Tyrion said. The servant brought his plate. He ripped off a chunk
of black bread.
Cersei was studying him warily. "What do you mean?"
Tyrion gave her a crooked smile. "Why, only that Tommen may get his wish. The maester thinks the boy
may yet live." He took a sip of beer.
Myrcella gave a happy gasp, and Tommen smiled nervously, but it was not the children Tyrion was
watching. The glance that passed between Jaime and Cersei lasted no more than a second, but he did not
miss it. Then his sister dropped her gaze to the table. "That is no mercy. These northern gods are cruel to
let the child linger in such pain."


"What were the maester's words?" Jaime asked.
The bacon crunched when he bit into it. Tyrion chewed thoughtfully for a moment and said, "He thinks
that if the boy were going to die, he would have done so already. It has been four days with no change."
"Will Bran get better, Uncle?" little Myrcella asked. She had all of her mother's beauty, and none of her
nature.
"His back is broken, little one," Tyrion told her. "The fall shattered his legs as well. They keep him alive
with honey and water, or he would starve to death. Perhaps, if he wakes, he will be able to eat real food,
but he will never walk again."
"If he wakes," Cersei repeated. "Is that likely?"
"The gods alone know," Tyrion told her. "The maester only hopes." He chewed some more bread. "I
would swear that wolf of his is keeping the boy alive. The creature is outside his window day and night,
howling. Every time they chase it away, it returns. The maester said they closed the window once, to shut
out the noise, and Bran seemed to weaken. When they opened it again, his heart beat stronger."
The queen shuddered. "There is something unnatural about those animals," she said. "They are
dangerous. I will not have any of them coming south with us."
Jaime said, "You'll have a hard time stopping them, sister. They follow those girls everywhere."
Tyrion started on his fish. "Are you leaving soon, then?"
"Not near soon enough," Cersei said. Then she frowned. "Are we leaving?" she echoed. "What about
you? Gods, don't tell me you are staying here?"
Tyrion shrugged. "Benjen Stark is returning to the Night's Watch with his brother's bastard. I have a
mind to go with them and see this Wall we have all heard so much of."
Jaime smiled. "I hope you're not thinking of taking the black on us, sweet brother."
Tyrion laughed. "What, me, celibate? The whores would go begging from Dorne to Casterly Rock. No,
I just want to stand on top of the Wall and piss off the edge of the world."
Cersei stood abruptly. "The children don't need to hear this filth. Tommen, Myrcella, come." She strode
briskly from the morning room, her train and her pups trailing behind her.
Jaime Lannister regarded his brother thoughtfully with those cool green eyes. "Stark will never consent to
leave Winterfell with his son lingering in the shadow of death."
"He will if Robert commands it," Tyrion said. "And Robert will command it. There is nothing Lord
Eddard can do for the boy in any case."
"He could end his torment," Jaime said. "I would, if it were my son. It would be a mercy."
"I advise against putting that suggestion to Lord Eddard, sweet brother," Tyrion said. "He would not
take it kindly."


"Even if the boy does live, he will be a cripple. Worse than a cripple. A grotesque. Give me a good
clean death."
Tyrion replied with a shrug that accentuated the twist of his shoulders. "Speaking for the grotesques," he
said, "I beg to differ. Death is so terribly final, while life is full of possibilities."
Jaime smiled. "You are a perverse little imp, aren't you?"
"Oh, yes," Tyrion admitted. "I hope the boy does wake. I would be most interested to hear what he
might have to say."
His brother's smile curdled like sour milk. "Tyrion, my sweet brother," he said darkly, "there are times
when you give me cause to wonder whose side you are on."
Tyrion's mouth was full of bread and fish. He took a swallow of strong black beer to wash it all down,
and grinned up wolfishly at Jaime, "Why, Jaime, my sweet brother," he said, "you wound me. You know
how much I love my family."
JON
on climbed the steps slowly, trying not to think that this might be the last time ever. Ghost padded silently
beside him. Outside, snow swirled through the castle gates, and the yard was all noise and chaos, but
inside the thick stone walls it was still warm and quiet. Too quiet for Jon's liking.
He reached the landing and stood for a long moment, afraid. Ghost nuzzled at his hand. He took courage
from that. He straightened, and entered the room.
Lady Stark was there beside his bed. She had been there, day and night, for close on a fortnight. Not
for a moment had she left Bran's side. She had her meals brought to her there, and chamber pots as well,
and a small hard bed to sleep on, though it was said she had scarcely slept at all. She fed him herself, the
honey and water and herb mixture that sustained life. Not once did she leave the room. So Jon had
stayed away.
But now there was no more time.
He stood in the door for a moment, afraid to speak, afraid to come closer. The window was open.
Below, a wolf howled. Ghost heard and lifted his head.
Lady Stark looked over. For a moment she did not seem to recognize him. Finally she blinked. "What
areyou doing here?" she asked in a voice strangely flat and emotionless.
"I came to see Bran," Jon said. "To say good-bye."
Her face did not change. Her long auburn hair was dull and tangled. She looked as though she had aged
twenty years. "You've said it. Now go away."
Part of him wanted only to flee, but he knew that if he did he might never see Bran again. He took a
nervous step into the room. "Please," he said.


Something cold moved in her eyes. "I told you to leave," she said. "We don't want you here."
Once that would have sent him running. Once that might even have made him cry. Now it only made him
angry. He would be a Sworn Brother of the Night's Watch soon, and face worse dangers than Catelyn
Tully Stark. "He's my brother," he said.
"Shall I call the guards?"
"Call them," Jon said, defiant. "You can't stop me from seeing him." He crossed the room, keeping the
bed between them, and looked down on Bran where he lay.
She was holding one of his hands. It looked like a claw. This was not the Bran he remembered. The
flesh had all gone from him. His skin stretched tight over bones like sticks. Under the blanket, his legs
bent in ways that made Jon sick. His eyes were sunken deep into black pits; open, but they saw nothing.
The fall had shrunken him somehow. He looked half a leaf, as if the first strong wind would carry him off
to his grave.
Yet under the frail cage of those shattered ribs, his chest rose and fell with each shallow breath.
"Bran," he said, "I'm sorry I didn't come before. I was afraid." He could feel the tears rolling down his
cheeks. Jon no longer cared. "Don't die, Bran. Please. We're all waiting for you to wake up. Me and
Robb and the girls, everyone . . ."
Lady Stark was watching. She had not raised a cry. Jon took that for acceptance. Outside the window,
the direwolf howled again. The wolf that Bran had not had time to name.
"I have to go now," Jon said. "Uncle Benjen is waiting. I'm to go north to the Wall. We have to leave
today, before the snows come." He remembered how excited Bran had been at the prospect of the
journey. It was more than he could bear, the thought of leaving him behind like this. Jon brushed away his
tears, leaned over, and kissed his brother lightly on the lips.
"I wanted him to stay here with me," Lady Stark said softly.
Jon watched her, wary. She was not even looking at him. She was
84 GEORGE R.R. MARTM
talking to him, but for a part of her, it was as though he were not even in the room.
"I prayed for it," she said dully. "He was my special boy. I went to the sept and prayed seven times to
the seven faces of god that Ned would change his mind and leave him here with me. Sometimes prayers
are answered."
Jon did not know what to say. "It wasn't your fault," he managed after an awkward silence.
Her eyes found him. They were full of poison. "I need none of your absolution, bastard."
Jon lowered his eyes. She was cradling one of Bran's hands. He took the other, squeezed it. Fingers like
the bones of birds. "Good-bye," he said.
He was at the door when she called out to him. "Jon," she said. He should have kept going, but she had


never called him by his name before. He turned to find her looking at his face, as if she were seeing it for
the first time.
"Yes?" he said.
"It should have been you," she told him. Then she turned back to Bran and began to weep, her whole
body shaking with the sobs. Jon had never seen her cry before.
It was a long walk down to the yard.
Outside, everything was noise and confusion. Wagons were being loaded, men were shouting, horses
were being harnessed and saddled and led from the stables. A light snow had begun to fall, and everyone
was in an uproar to be off.
Robb was in the middle of it, shouting commands with the best of them. He seemed to have grown of
late, as if Bran's fall and his mother's collapse had somehow made him stronger. Grey Wind was at his
side.
"Uncle Benjen is looking for you," he told Jon. "He wanted to be gone an hour ago."
"I know," Jon said. "Soon." He looked around at all the noise and confusion. "Leaving is harder than I
thought."
"For me too," Robb said. He had snow in his hair, melting from the heat of his body. "Did you see him?"
Jon nodded, not trusting himself to speak.
"He's not going to die," Robb said. "I know it."
"You Starks are hard to kill," Jon agreed. His voice was flat and tired. The visit had taken all the strength
from him.
Robb knew something was wrong. "My mother
"She was . . . very kind," Jon told him.
Robb looked relieved. "Good." He smiled. "The next time I see you, you'll be all in black."
Jon forced himself to smile back. "It was always my color. How long do you think it will be?"
"Soon enough," Robb promised. He pulled Jon to him and embraced him fiercely. "Farewell, Snow."
Jon hugged him back. "And you, Stark. Take care of Bran."
"I will." They broke apart and looked at each other awkwardly. "Uncle Benjen said to send you to the
stables if I saw you," Robb finally said.
"I have one more farewell to make," Jon told him.
"Then I haven't seen you," Robb replied. Jon left him standing there in the snow, surrounded by wagons
and wolves and horses. It was a short walk to the armory. He picked up his package and took the


covered bridge across to the Keep.
Arya was in her room, packing a polished ironwood chest that was bigger than she was. Nymeria was
helping. Arya would only have to point, and the wolf would bound across the room, snatch up some wisp
of silk in her jaws, and fetch it back. But when she smelled Ghost, she sat down on her haunches and
yelped at them.
Arya glanced behind her, saw Jon, and jumped to her feet. She threw her skinny arms tight around his
neck. "I was afraid you were gone," she said, her breath catching in her throat. "They wouldn't let me out
to say good-bye."
"What did you do now?" Jon was amused.
Arya disentangled herself from him and made a face. "Nothing. I was all packed and everything." She
gestured at the huge chest, no more than a third full, and at the clothes that were scattered all over the
room. "Septa Mordane says I have to do it all over. My things weren't properly folded, she says. A
proper southron lady doesn't just throw her clothes inside her chest like old rags, she says."
"Is that what you did, little sister?"
"Well, they're going to get all messed up anyway," she said. "Who cares how they're folded?"
"Septa Mordane," Jon told her. "I don't think she'd like Nymeria helping, either." The she-wolf regarded
him silently with her dark golden eyes. "It's just as well. I have something for you to take with you, and it
has to be packed very carefully."
Her face lit up. "A present?"
"You could call it that. Close the door."
Wary but excited, Arya checked the hall. "Nymeria, here. Guard." She left the wolf out there to warn of
intruders and closed the door. By
then Jon had pulled off the rags he'd wrapped it in. He held it out to her.
Arya's eyes went wide. Dark eyes, like his. "A sword," she said in a small, hushed breath.
The scabbard was soft grey leather, supple as sin. Jon drew out the blade slowly, so she could see the
deep blue sheen of the steel. "This is no toy," he told her. "Be careful you don't cut yourself. The edges
are sharp enough to shave with."
"Girls don't shave," Arya said.
"Maybe they should. Have you ever seen the septa's legs?"
She giggled at him. "It's so skinny."
"So are you," Jon told her. "I had Mikken make this special. The bravos use swords like this in Pentos
and Myr and the other Free Cities. It won't hack a man's head off, but it can poke him full of holes if
you're fast enough."


"I can be fast," Arya said.
"You'll have to work at it every day." He put the sword in her hands, showed her how to hold it, and
stepped back. "How does it feel? Do you like the balance?"
"I think so," Arya said.
"First lesson," Jon said. "Stick them with the pointy end."
Arya gave him a whap on the arm with the flat of her blade. The blow stung, but Jon found himself
grinning like an idiot. "I know which end to use," Arya said. A doubtful look crossed her face. "Septa
Mordane will take it away from me."
"Not if she doesn't know you have it," Jon said.
"Who will I practice with?"
"You'll find someone," Jon promised her. "King's Landing is a true city, a thousand times the size of
Winterfell. Until you find a partner, watch how they fight in the yard. Run, and ride, make yourself strong.
And whatever you do . . ."
Arya knew what was coming next. They said it together.
11 * . . don't . . . tell . . . Sansa!"
Jon messed up her hair. "I will miss you, little sister."
Suddenly she looked like she was going to cry. "I wish you were coming with us."
"Different roads sometimes lead to the same castle. Who knows?" He was feeling better now. He was
not going to let himself be sad. "I better go. I'll spend my first year on the Wall emptying chamber pots if I
keep Uncle Ben waiting any longer."
Arya ran to him for a last hug. "Put down the sword first," Jon
warned her, laughing. She set it aside almost shyly and showered him with kisses.
When he turned back at the door, she was holding it again, trying it for balance. "I almost forgot," he told
her. "All the best swords have names."
"Like Ice," she said. She looked at the blade in her hand. "Does this have a name? Oh, tell me."
"Can't you guess?" Jon teased. "Your very favorite thing."
Arya seemed puzzled at first. Then it came to her. She was that quick. They said it together:
"Needle!"
The memory of her laughter warmed him on the long ride north.


DAENERYS
Daenerys Targaryen wed Khal Drogo with fear and barbaric splendor in a field beyond the walls of
Pentos, for the Dothraki believed that all things of importance in a man's life must be done beneath the
open sky.
Drogo had called his khalasar to attend him and they had come, forty thousand Dothraki warriors and
uncounted numbers of women, children, and slaves. Outside the city walls they camped with their vast
herds, raising palaces of woven grass, eating everything in sight, and making the good folk of Pentos
more anxious with every passing day.
"My fellow magisters; have doubled the size of the city guard," Illyrio told them over platters of honey
duck and orange snap peppers one night at the manse that had been Drogo's. The khal had joined his
khalasar, his estate given over to Daenerys and her brother until the wedding.
"Best we get Princess Daenerys wedded quickly before they hand half the wealth of Pentos away to
sellswords and bravos," Ser Jorah Mormont jested. The exile had offered her brother his sword the night
Dany had been sold to Kbal Drogo; Viserys had accepted eagerly. Mormont had been their constant
companion ever since.
Magister Illyrio laughed lightly through his forked beard, but Viserys did not so much as smile. "He can
have her tomorrow, if he
likes," her brother said. He glanced over at Dany, and she lowered her eyes. "So long as he pays the
price."
Illyrio waved a languid hand in the air, rings glittering on his fat fingers. "I have told you, all is settled.
Trust me. The khal has promised you a crown, and you shall have it."
"Yes, but when?"
"When the khal chooses," Illyrio said. "He will have the girl first, and after they are wed he must make his
procession across the plains and present her to the dosh khaleen at Vaes Dolthrak. After that, perhaps. If
the omens favor war."
Viserys seethed with impatience. "I piss on Dothraki omens. The Usurper sits on my father's throne.
How long must I wait?"
Illyrio gave a massive shrug. "You have waited most of your life, great king. What is another few months,
another few years?"
Ser Jorah, who had traveled as far east as Vaes Dothrak, nodded in agreement. "I counsel you to be
patient, Your Grace. The Dothraki are true to their word, but they do things in their own time. A lesser
man may beg a favor from the khal, but must never presume to berate him."
Viserys bristled. "Guard your tongue, Mormont, or I'll have it out. I am no lesser man, I am the rightful
Lord of the Seven Kingdoms. The dragon does not beg."
Ser Jorah lowered his eyes respectfully. Illyrio smiled enigmatically and tore a wing from the duck.
Honey and grease ran over his fingers and dripped down into his beard as he nibbled at the tender meat.


There are no more dragons, Dany thought, staring at her brother, though she did not dare say it aloud.
Yet that night she dreamt of one. Viserys was hitting her, hurting her. She was naked, clumsy with fear.
She ran from him, but her body seemed thick and ungainly. He struck her again. She stumbled and fell.
"You woke the dragon," he screamed as he kicked her. "You woke the dragon, you woke the dragon."
Her thighs were slick with blood. She closed her eyes and whimpered. As if in answer, there was a
hideous ripping sound and the crackling of some great fire. When she looked again, Viserys was gone,
great columns of flame rose all around, and in the midst of them was the dragon. It turned its great head
slowly. When its molten eyes found hers, she woke, shaking and covered with a fine sheen of sweat. She
had never been so afraid . . .
. . . until the day of her wedding came at last.
The ceremony began at dawn and continued until dusk, an endless day of drinking and feasting and
fighting. A mighty earthen ramp had been raised amid the grass palaces, and there Dany was seated
beside
Khal Drogo, above the seething sea of Dothraki. She had never seen so many people in one place, nor
people so strange and frightening. The horselords might put on rich fabrics and sweet perfumes when
they visited the Free Cities, but out under the open sky they kept the old ways. Men and women alike
wore painted leather vests over bare chests and horsehair leggings cinched by bronze medallion belts,
and the warriors greased their long braids with fat from the rendering pits. They gorged themselves on
horseflesh roasted with honey and peppers, drank themselves blind on fermented mare's milk and Illyrio's
fine wines, and spat jests at each other across the fires, their voices harsh and alien in Dany's ears.
Viserys was seated just below her, splendid in a new black wool tunic with a scarlet dragon on the
chest. Illyrio and Ser Jorah sat beside him. Theirs was a place of high honor, just below the khal's own
bloodriders, but Dany could see the anger in her brother's lilac eyes. He did not like sitting beneath her,
and he fumed when the slaves offered each dish first to the khal and his bride, and served him from the
portions they refused. He could do nothing but nurse his resentment, so nurse it he did, his mood growing
blacker by the hour at each insult to his person.
Dany had never felt so alone as she did seated in the midst of that vast horde. Her brother had told her
to smile, and so she smiled until her face ached and the tears came unbidden to her eyes. She did her
best to hide them, knowing how angry Viserys would be if he saw her crying, terrified of how Khal
Drogo might react. Food was brought to her, steaming joints of meat and thick black sausages and
Dothraki blood pies, and later fruits and sweetgrass stews and delicate pastries from the kitchens of
Pentos, but she waved it all away. Her stomach was a roil, and she knew she could keep none of it
down.
There was no one to talk to. Khal Drogo shouted commands and jests down to his bloodriders, and
laughed at their replies, but he scarcely glanced at Dany beside him. They had no common language.
Dothraki was incomprehensible to her, and the khal knew only a few words of the bastard Valyrian of
the Free Cities, and none at all of the Common Tongue of the Seven Kingdoms. She would even have
welcomed the conversation of Illyrio and her brother, but they were too far below to hear her.
So she sat in her wedding silks, nursing a cup of honeyed wine, afraid to eat, talking silently to herself. I
am blood of the dragon, she told herself. I am Daenerys Stormborn, Princess of Dragonstone, of the
blood and seed of Aegon the Conqueror.
The sun was only a quarter of the way up the sky when she saw her


first man die. Drums were beating as some of the women danced for the khal. Drogo watched without
expression, but his eyes followed their movements, and from time to time he would toss down a bronze
medallion for the women to fight over.
The warriors were watching too. One of them finally stepped into the circle, grabbed a dancer by the
arm, pushed her down to the ground, and mounted her right there, as a stallion mounts a mare. Illyrio had
told her that might happen. "The Dothraki mate like the animals in their herds. There is no privacy in a
khalasar, and they do not understand sin or shame as we do."
Dany looked away from the coupling, frightened when she realized what was happening, but a second
warrior stepped forward, and a third, and soon there was no way to avert her eyes. Then two men
seized the same woman. She heard a shout, saw a shove, and in the blink of an eye the arakhs were out,
long razor-sharp blades, half sword and half scythe. A dance of death began as the warriors circled and
slashed, leaping toward each other, whirling the blades around their heads, shrieking insults at each clash.
No one made a move to interfere.
It ended as quickly as it began. The arakhs shivered together faster than Dany could follow, one man
missed a step, the other swung his blade in a flat arc. Steel bit into flesh just above the Dothraki's waist,
and opened him from backbone to belly button, spilling his entrails into the dust. As the loser died, the
winner took hold of the nearest woman-not even the one they had been quarreling over-and had her
there and then. Slaves carried off the body, and the dancing resumed.
Magister Illyrio had warned Dany about this too. "A Dothraki wedding without at least three deaths is
deemed a dull affair," he had said. Her wedding must have been especially blessed; before the day was
over, a dozen men had died.
As the hours passed, the terror grew in Dany, until it was all she could do not to scream. She was afraid
of the Dothraki, whose ways seemed alien and monstrous, as if they were beasts in human skins and not
true men at all. She was afraid of her brother, of what he might do if she failed him. Most of all, she was
afraid of what would happen tonight under the stars, when her brother gave her up to the hulking giant
who sat drinking beside her with a face as still and cruel as a bronze mask.
I am the blood of the dragon, she told herself again.
When at last the sun was low in the sky, Khal Drogo clapped his hands together, and the drums and the
shouting and feasting came to a
sudden halt. Drogo stood and pulled Dany to her feet beside him. It was time for her bride gifts.
And after the gifts, she knew, after the sun had gone down, it would be time for the first ride and the
consummation of her marriage. Dany tried to put the thought aside, but it would not leave her. She
hugged herself to try to keep from shaking.
Her brother Viserys gifted her with three handmaids. Dany knew they had cost him nothing; Illyrio no
doubt had provided the girls. Irri and Jhiqui were copper-skinned Dothraki with black hair and
almondshaped eyes, Doreah a fair-haired, blue-eyed Lysene girl. "These are no common servants, sweet
sister," her brother told her as they were brought forward one by one. "Illyrio and I selected them
personally for you. Irri will teach you riding, Jhiqui the Dothraki tongue, and Doreah will instruct you in
the womanly arts of love." He smiled thinly. "She's very good, Illyrio and I can both swear to that."


Ser Jorah Mormont apologized for his gift. "It is a small thing, my princess, but all a poor exile could
afford," he said as he laid a small stack of old books before her. They were histories and songs of the
Seven Kingdoms, she saw, written in the Common Tongue. She thanked him with all her heart.
Magister Illyrio murmured a command, and four burly slaves hurried forward, bearing between them a
great cedar chest bound in bronze. When she opened it, she found piles of the finest velvets and damasks
the Free Cities could produce . . . and resting on top, nestled in the soft cloth, three huge eggs. Dany
gasped. They were the most beautiful things she had ever seen, each different than the others, patterned
in such rich colors that at first she thought they were crusted with jewels, and so large it took both of her
hands to hold one. She lifted it delicately, expecting that it would be made of some fine porcelain or
delicate enamel, or even blown glass, but it was much heavier than that, as if it were all of solid stone.
The surface of the shell was covered with tiny scales, and as she turned the egg between her fingers, they
shimmered like polished metal in the light of the setting sun. One egg was a deep green, with burnished
bronze flecks that came and went depending on how Dany turned it. Another was pale cream streaked
with gold. The last was black, as black as a midnight sea, yet alive with scarlet ripples and swirls. "What
are they?" she asked, her voice hushed and full of wonder.
"Dragon's eggs, from the Shadow Lands beyond Asshai," said Magister Illyrio. "The eons have turned
them to stone, yet still they burn bright with beauty."
"I shall treasure them always." Dany had heard tales of such eggs,
but she had never seen one, nor thought to see one. It was a truly magnificent gift, though she knew that
Illyrio could afford to be lavish. He had collected a fortune in horses and slaves for his part in selling her
to Khal Drogo.
The khal's bloodriders offered her the traditional three weapons, and splendid weapons they were.
Haggo gave her a great leather whip with a silver handle, Cohollo a magnificent arakh chased in gold, and
Qotho a double-curved dragonbone bow taller than she was. Magister Illyrio and Ser Jorah had taught
her the traditional refusals for these offerings. "This is a gift worthy of a great warrior, 0 blood of my
blood, and I am but a woman. Let my lord husband bear these in my stead." And so Khal Drogo too
received his "bride gifts."
Other gifts she was given in plenty by other Dothraki: slippers and jewels and silver rings for her hair,
medallion belts and painted vests and soft furs, sandsilks and jars of scent, needles and feathers and tiny
bottles of purple glass, and a gown made from the skin of a thousand mice. "A handsome gift, Khaleesi,"
Magister Illyrio said of the last, after he had told her what it was. "Most lucky." The gifts mounted up
around her in great piles, more gifts than she could possibly imagine, more gifts than she could want or
use.
And last of all, Khal Drogo brought forth his own bride gift to her. An expectant hush rippled out from
the center of the camp as he left her side, growing until it had swallowed the whole khalasar. When he
returned, the dense press of Dothraki gift-givers parted before him, and he led the horse to her.
She was a young filly, spirited and splendid. Dany knew just enough about horses to know that this was
no ordinary animal. There was something about her that took the breath away. She was grey as the
winter sea, with a mane like silver smoke.
Hesitantly she reached out and stroked the horse's neck, ran her fingers through the silver of her mane.
Khal Drogo said something in Dothraki and Magister Illyrio translated. "Silver for the silver of your hair,
the khal says."


"She's beautiful," Dany murmured.
"She is the pride of the khalasar, " Illyrio said. "Custom decrees that the khaleesi must ride a mount
worthy of her place by the side of the khaL "
Drogo stepped forward and put his hands on her waist. He lifted her up as easily as if she were a child
and set her on the thin Dothraki saddle, so much smaller than the ones she was used to. Dany sat there
uncertain for a moment. No one had told her about this part. "What should I do?" she asked Illyrio.
It was Ser Jorah Mormont who answered. "Take the reins and ride. You need not go far."
Nervously Dany gathered the reins.in her hands and slid her feet into the short stirrups. She was only a
fair rider; she had spent far more time traveling by ship and wagon and palanquin than by horseback.
Praying that she would not fall off and disgrace herself, she gave the filly the lightest and most timid touch
with her knees.
And for the first time in hours, she forgot to be afraid. Or perhaps it was for the first time ever.
The silver-grey filly moved with a smooth and silken gait, and the crowd parted for her, every eye upon
them. Dany found herself moving faster than she had intended, yet somehow it was exciting rather than
terrifying. The horse broke into a trot, and she smiled. Dothraki scrambled to clear a path. The slightest
pressure with her legs, the lightest touch on the reins, and the filly responded. She sent it into a gallop,
and now the Dothraki were hooting and laughing and shouting at her as they jumped out of her way. As
she turned to ride back, a firepit loomed ahead, directly in her path. They were hemmed in on either side,
with no room to stop. A daring she had never known filled Daenerys then, and she gave the filly her
head.
The silver horse leapt the flames as if she had wings.
When she pulled up before Magister Illyrio, she said, "Tell Khal Drogo that he has given me the wind."
The fat Pentoshi stroked his yellow beard as he repeated her words in Dothraki, and Dany saw her new
husband smile for the first time.
The last sliver of sun vanished behind the high walls of Pentos to the west just then. Dany had lost all
track of time. Khal Drogo commanded his bloodriders to bring forth his own horse, a lean red stallion.
As the khal was saddling the horse, Viserys slid close to Dany on her silver, dug his fingers into her leg,
and said, "Please him, sweet sister, or I swear, you will see the dragon wake as it has never woken
before."
The fear came back to her then, with her brother's words. She felt like a child once more, only thirteen
and all alone, not ready for what was about to happen to her.
They rode out together as the stars came out, leaving the khalasar and the grass palaces behind. Khal
Drogo spoke no word to her, but drove his stallion at a hard trot through the gathering dusk. The tiny
silver bells in his long braid rang softly as he rode. "I am the blood of the dragon," she whispered aloud as
she followed, trying to keep her courage up. "I am the blood of the dragon. I am the blood of the
dragon." The dragon was never afraid.
Afterward she could not say how far or how long they had ridden, but it was full dark when they
stopped at a grassy place beside a small stream. Drogo swung off his horse and lifted her down from


hers. She felt as fragile as glass in his hands, her limbs as weak as water. She stood there helpless and
trembling in her wedding silks while he secured the horses, and when he turned to look at her, she began
to cry.
Khal Drogo stared at her tears, his face strangely empty of expression. "No," he said. He lifted his hand
and rubbed away the tears roughly with a callused thumb.
"You speak the Common Tongue," Dany said in wonder.
"No," he said again.
Perhaps he had only that word, she thought, but it was one word more than she had known he had, and
somehow it made her feel a little better. Drogo touched her hair lightly, sliding the silver-blond strands
between his fingers and murmuring softly in Dothraki. Dany did not understand the words, yet there was
warmth in the tone, a tenderness she had never expected from this man.
He put his finger under her chin and lifted her head, so she was looking up into his eyes. Drogo towered
over her as he towered over everyone. Taking her lightly under the arms, he lifted her and seated her on
a rounded rock beside the stream. Then he sat on the ground facing her, legs crossed beneath him, their
faces finally at a height. "No," he said.
"Is that the only word you know?" she asked him.
Drogo did not reply. His long heavy braid was coiled in the dirt beside him. He pulled it over his right
shoulder and began to remove the bells from his hair, one by one. After a moment Dany leaned forward
to help. When they were done, Drogo gestured. She understood. Slowly, carefully, she began to undo
his braid.
It took a long time. All the while he sat there silently, watching her. When she was done, he shook his
head, and his hair spread out behind him like a river of darkness, oiled and gleaming. She had never seen
hair so long, so black, so thick.
Then it was his turn. He began to undress her.
His fingers were deft and strangely tender. He removed her silks one by one, carefully, while Dany sat
unmoving, silent, looking at his eyes. When he bared her small breasts, she could not help herself. She
averted her eyes and covered herself with her hands. "No," Drogo said. He pulled her hands away from
her breasts, gently but firmly, then lifted her face again to make her look at him. "No," he repeated.
"No," she echoed back at him.
He stood her up then and pulled her close to remove the last of her
silks. The night air was chilly on her bare skin. She shivered, and gooseflesh covered her arms and legs.
She was afraid of what would come next, but for a while nothing happened. Khal Drogo sat with his legs
crossed, looking at her, drinking in her body with his eyes.
After a while he began to touch her. Lightly at first, then harder. She could sense the fierce strength in his
hands, but he never hurt her. He held her hand in his own and brushed her fingers, one by one. He ran a
hand gently down her leg. He stroked her face, tracing the curve of her ears, running a finger gently
around her mouth. He put both hands in her hair and combed it with his fingers. He turned her around,


massaged her shoulders, slid a knuckle down the path of her spine.
It seemed as if hours passed before his hands finally went to her breasts. He stroked the soft skin
underneath until it tingled. He circled her nipples with his thumbs, pinched them between thumb and
forefinger, then began to pull at her, very lightly at first, then more insistently, until her nipples stiffened
and began to ache.
He stopped then, and drew her down onto his lap. Dany was flushed and breathless, her heart fluttering
in her chest. He cupped her face in his huge hands and looked into his eyes. "No?" he said, and she knew
it was a question.
She took his hand and moved it down to the wetness between her thighs. "Yes," she whispered as she
put his finger inside her.
EDDARD
The summons came in the hour before the dawn, when the world was still and grey.
Alyn shook him roughly from his dreams and Ned stumbled into the predawn chill, groggy from sleep, to
find his horse saddled and the king already mounted. Robert wore thick brown gloves and a heavy fur
cloak with a hood that covered his ears, and looked for all the world like a bear sitting a horse. "Up,
Stark!" he roared. "Up, up! We have matters of state to discuss."
"By all means," Ned said. "Come inside, Your Grace." Alyn lifted the flap of the tent.
"No, no, no," Robert said. His breath steamed with every word. "The camp is full of ears. Besides, I
want to ride out and taste this country of yours." Ser Boros and Ser Meryn waited behind him with a
dozen guardsmen, Ned saw. There was nothing to do but rub the sleep from his eyes, dress, and mount
up.
Robert set the pace, driving his huge black destrier hard as Ned galloped along beside him, trying to
keep up. He called out a question as they rode, but the wind blew his words away, and the king did not
hear him. After that Ned rode in silence. They soon left the kingsroad and took off across rolling plains
dark with mist. By then the guard had fallen back a small distance, safely out of earshot, but still Robert
would not slow.
Dawn broke as they crested a low ridge, and finally the king pulled up. By then they were miles south of
the main party. Robert was flushed and exhilarated as Ned reined up beside him. "Gods," he swore,
laughing, "it feels good to get out and tide the way a man was meant to ride! I swear, Ned, this creeping
along is enough to drive a man mad." He had never been a patient man, Robert Baratheon. "That
damnable wheelhouse, the way it creaks and groans, climbing every bump in the road as if it were a
mountain . . . I promise you, if that wretched thing breaks another axle, I'm going to burn it, and Cersei
can walk!"
Ned laughed. "I will gladly light the torch for you."
"Good man!" The king clapped him on the shoulder. "I've half a mind to leave them all behind and just
keep going."


A smile touched Ned's lips. "I do believe you mean it."
"I do, I do," the king said. "What do you say, Ned? Just you and me, two vagabond knights on the
kingsroad, our swords at our sides and the gods know what in front of us, and maybe a farmer's
daughter or a tavern wench to warm our beds tonight."
"Would that we could," Ned said, "but we have duties now, my liege . . . to the realm, to our children, I
to my lady wife and you to your queen. We are not the boys we were."
"You were never the boy you were," Robert grumbled. "More's the pity. And yet there was that one
time . . . what was her name, that common girl of yours? Becca? No, she was one of mine, gods love
her, black hair and these sweet big eyes, you could drown in them. Yours was . . . Aleena? No. You told
me once. Was it Merryl? You know the one I mean, your bastard's mother?"
"Her name was Wylla," Ned replied with cool courtesy, "and I would sooner not speak of her."
"Wylla. Yes." The king grinned. "She must have been a rare wench if she could make Lord Eddard
Stark forget his honor, even for an hour. You never told me what she looked like . . ."
Ned's mouth tightened in anger. "Nor will 1. Leave it be, Robert, for the love you say you bear me. I
dishonored myself and I dishonored Catelyn, in the sight of gods and men."
"Gods have mercy, you scarcely knew Catelyn."
"I had taken her to wife. She was carrying my child."
"You are too hard on yourself, Ned. You always were. Damn it, no woman wants Baelor the Blessed in
her bed." He slapped a hand on his knee. "Well, I'll not press you if you feel so strong about it, though I
swear, at times you're so prickly you ought to take the hedgehog as your sigil."
The rising sun sent fingers of light through the pale white mists of dawn. A wide plain spread out beneath
them, bare and brown, its flatness here and there relieved by long, low hummocks. Ned pointed them out
to his king. "The barrows of the First Men."
Robert frowned. "Have we ridden onto a graveyard?"
"There are barrows everywhere in the north, Your Grace," Ned told him. "This land is old."
"And cold," Robert grumbled, pulling his cloak more tightly around himself. The guard had reined up well
behind them, at the bottom of the ridge. "Well, I did not bring you out here to talk of graves or bicker
about your bastard. There was a rider in the night, from Lord Varys in King's Landing. Here." The king
pulled a paper from his belt and handed it to Ned.
Varys the eunuch was the king's master of whisperers. He served Robert now as he had once served
Aerys Targaryen. Ned unrolled the paper with trepidation, thinking of Lysa and her terrible accusation,
but the message did not concern Lady Arryn. "What is the source for this information?"
"Do you remember Ser Jorah Mormont?"
"Would that I might forget him," Ned said bluntly. The Mormonts of Bear Island were an old house,
proud and honorable, but their lands were cold and distant and poor. Ser Jorah had tried to swell the


family coffers by selling some poachers to a Tyroshi slaver. As the Mormonts were bannermen to the
Starks, his crime had dishonored the north. Ned had made the long journey west to Bear Island, only to
find when he arrived that Jorah had taken ship beyond the reach of Ice and the king's justice. Five years
had passed since then.
"Ser Jorah is now in Pentos, anxious to earn a royal pardon that would allow him to return from exile,"
Robert explained. "Lord Varys makes good use of him."
"So the slaver has become a spy," Ned said with distaste. He handed the letter back. "I would rather he
become a corpse."
"Varys tells me that spies are more useful than corpses," Robert said. "Jorah aside, what do you make of
his report?"
"Daenerys Targaryen has wed some Dothraki horselord. What of it? Shall we send her a wedding gift?"
The king frowned. "A knife, perhaps. A good sharp one, and a bold man to wield it."
Ned did not feign surprise; Robert's hatred of the Targaryens was a madness in him. He remembered
the angry words they had exchanged when Tywin Lannister had presented Robert with the corpses of
Rhaegar's wife and children as a token of fealty. Ned had named that
100 GLORGE R.R. MARTIN
murder; Robert called it war. When he had protested that the young prince and princess were no more
than babes, his new-made king had replied, "I see no babes. Only dragonspawn." Not even Jon Arryn
had been able to calm that storm. Eddard Stark had ridden out that very day in a cold rage, to fight the
last battles of the war alone in the south. It had taken another death to reconcile them; Lyanna's death,
and the grief they had shared over her passing.
This time, Ned resolved to keep his temper. "Your Grace, the girl is scarcely more than a child. You are
no Tywin Lannister, to slaughter innocents." It was said that Rhaegar's little girl had cried as they dragged
her from beneath her bed to face the swords. The boy had been no more than a babe in arms, yet Lord
Tywin's soldiers had torn him from his mother's breast and dashed his head against a wall.
"And how long will this one remain an innocent?" Robert's mouth grew hard. "This child will soon enough
spread her legs and start breeding more dragonspawn to plague me."
"Nonetheless," Ned said, "the murder of children . . . it would be vile . . . unspeakable . . ."
"Unspeakable?" the king roared. "What Aerys did to your brother Brandon was unspeakable. The way
your lord father died, that was unspeakable. And Rhaegar . . . how many times do you think he raped
your sister? How many hundreds of times?" His voice had grown so loud that his horse whinnied
nervously beneath him. The king jerked the reins hard, quieting the animal, and pointed an angry finger at
Ned. "I will kill every Targaryen I can get my hands on, until they are as dead as their dragons, and then I
will piss on their graves."
Ned knew better than to defy him when the wrath was on him. If the years had not quenched Robert's
thirst for revenge, no words of his would help. "You can't get your hands on this one, can you?" he said
quietly.


The king's mouth twisted in a bitter grimace. "No, gods be cursed. Some pox-ridden Pentoshi
cheesemonger had her brother and her walled up on his estate with pointy-hatted eunuchs all around
them, and now he's handed them over to the Dothraki. I should have had them both killed years ago,
when it was easy to get at them, but Jon was as bad as you. More fool 1, 1 listened to him."
"Jon Arryn was a wise man and a good Hand."
Robert snorted. The anger was leaving him as suddenly as it had come. "This Khal Drogo is said to have
a hundred thousand men in his horde. What would Jon say to that?"
"He would say that even a million Dothraki are no threat to the realm, so long as they remain on the
other side of the narrow sea,"
Ned replied calmly. "The barbarians have no ships. They hate and fear the open sea."
The king shifted uncomfortably in his saddle. "Perhaps. There are ships to be had in the Free Cities,
though. I tell you, Ned, I do not like this marriage. There are still those in the Seven Kingdoms who call
me Usurper. Do you forget how many houses fought for Targaryen in the war? They bide their time for
now, but give them half a chance, they will murder me in my bed, and my sons with me. If the beggar
king crosses with a Dothraki horde at his back, the traitors will join him."
"He will not cross," Ned promised. "And if by some mischance he does, we will throw him back into the
sea. Once you choose a new Warden of the East-"
The king groaned. "For the last time, I will not name the Arryn boy Warden. I know the boy is your
nephew, but with Targaryens climbing in bed with Dothraki, I would be mad to rest one quarter of the
realm on the shoulders of a sickly child."
Ned was ready for that. "Yet we still must have a Warden of the East. If Robert Arryn will not do, name
one of your brothers. Stannis proved himself at the siege of Storm's End, surely."
He let the name hang there for a moment. The king frowned and said nothing. He looked uncomfortable.
"That is," Ned finished quietly, watching, "unless you have already promised the honor to another."
For a moment Robert had the grace to look startled. Just as quickly, the look became annoyance.
"What if I have?"
"It's Jaime Lannister, is it not?"
Robert kicked his horse back into motion and started down the ridge toward the barrows. Ned kept
pace with him. The king rode on, eyes straight ahead. "Yes," he said at last. A single hard word to end
the matter.
"Kingslayer," Ned said. The rumors were true, then. He rode on dangerous ground now, he knew. "An
able and courageous man, no doubt," he said carefully, "but his father is Warden of the West, Robert. In
time Ser Jaime will succeed to that honor. No one man should hold both East and West." He left unsaid
his real concern; that the appointment would put half the armies of the realm into the hands of Lannisters.


"I will fight that battle when the enemy appears on the field," the king said stubbornly. "At the moment,
Lord Tywin looms eternal as Casterly Rock, so I doubt that Jaime will be succeeding anytime soon.
Don't vex me about this, Ned, the stone has been set."
"Your Grace, may I speak frankly?"
"I seem unable to stop you," Robert grumbled. They rode through tall brown grasses.
"Can you trust Jaime Lannister?"
"He is my wife's twin, a Sworn Brother of the Kingsguard, his life and fortune and honor all bound to
mine."
"As they were bound to Aerys Targaryen's," Ned pointed out.
"Why should I mistrust him? He has done everything I have ever asked of him. His sword helped win the
throne I sit on."
His sword helped taint the throne you sit on, Ned thought, but he did not permit the words to pass his
lips. "He swore a vow to protect his king's life with his own. Then he opened that king's throat with a
sword."
"Seven hells, someone had to kill Aerys!" Robert said, reining his mount to a sudden halt beside an
ancient barrow. "If Jaime hadn't done it, it would have been left for you or me."
"We were not Sworn Brothers of the Kingsguard," Ned said. The time had come for Robert to hear the
whole truth, he decided then and there. "Do you remember the Trident, Your Grace?"
"I won my crown there. How should I forget it?"
"You took a wound from Rhaegar," Ned reminded him. "So when the Targaryen host broke and ran,
you gave the pursuit into my hands. The remnants of Rhaegar's army fled back to King's Landing. We
followed. Aerys was in the Red Keep with several thousand loyalists. I expected to find the gates closed
to us."
Robert gave an impatient shake of his head. "Instead you found that our men had already taken the city.
What of it?"
"Not our men," Ned said patiently. "Lannister men. The lion of Lannister flew over the ramparts, not the
crowned stag. And they had taken the city by treachery."
The war had raged for close to a year. Lords great and small had flocked to Robert's banners; others
had remained loyal to Targaryen. The mighty Lannisters of Casterly Rock, the Wardens of the West, had
remained aloof from the struggle, ignoring calls to arms from both rebels and royalists. Aerys Targaryen
must have thought that his gods had answered his prayers when Lord Tywin Lannister appeared before
the gates of King's Landing with an army twelve thousand strong, professing loyalty. So the mad king had
ordered his last mad act. He had opened his city to the lions at the gate.
"Treachery was a coin the Targaryens knew well," Robert said. The anger was building in him again.


"Lannister paid them back in kind. It was no less than they deserved. I shall not trouble my sleep over it."
"You were not there," Ned said, bitterness in his voice. Troubled
sleep was no stranger to him. He had lived his lies for fourteen years, yet they still haunted him at night.
"There was no honor in that conquest."
"The Others take your honor!" Robert swore. "What did any Targaryen ever know of honor? Go down
into your crypt and ask Lyanna about the dragon's honor!"
"You avenged Lyanna at the Trident," Ned said, halting beside the king. Promise me, Ned, she had
whispered.
"That did not bring her back." Robert looked away, off into the grey distance. "The gods be damned. It
was a hollow victory they gave me. A crown . . . it was the girl I prayed them for. Your sister, safe . . .
and mine again, as she was meant to be. I ask you, Ned, what good is it to wear a crown? The gods
mock the prayers of kings and cowherds alike."
"I cannot answer for the gods, Your Grace . . . only for what I found when I rode into the throne room
that day," Ned said. "Aerys was dead on the floor, drowned in his own blood. His dragon skulls stared
down from the walls. Lannister's men were everywhere. Jaime wore the white cloak of the Kingsguard
over his golden armor. I can see him still. Even his sword was gilded. He was seated on the Iron Throne,
high above his knights, wearing a helm fashioned in the shape of a lion's head. How he glittered!"
"This is well known," the king complained.
"I was still mounted. I rode the length of the hall in silence, between the long rows of dragon skulls. It felt
as though they were watching me, somehow. I stopped in front of the throne, looking up at him. His
golden sword was across his legs, its edge red with a king's blood. My men were filling the room behind
me. Lannister's men drew back. I never said a word. I looked at him seated there on the throne, and I
waited. At last Jaime laughed and got up. He took off his helm, and he said to me, 'Have no fear, Stark. I
was only keeping it warm for our friend Robert. It's not a very comfortable seat, I'm afraid.' "
The king threw back his head and roared. His laughter startled a flight of crows from the tall brown
grass. They took to the air in a wild beating of wings. "You think I should mistrust Lannister because he
sat on my throne for a few moments?" He shook with laughter again. "Jaime was all of seventeen, Ned.
Scarce more than a boy."
"Boy or man, he had no right to that throne."
"Perhaps he was tired," Robert suggested. "Killing kings is weary work. Gods know, there's no place
else to rest your ass in that damnable room. And he spoke truly, it is a monstrous uncomfortable chair. In
more ways than one." The king shook his head. "Well, now I know
Jaime's dark sin, and the matter can be forgotten. I am heartily sick of secrets and squabbles and matters
of state, Ned. It's all as tedious as counting coppers. Come, let's ride, you used to know how. I want to
feel the wind in my hair again." He kicked his horse back into motion and galloped up over the barrow,


raining earth down behind him.
For a moment Ned did not follow. He had run out of words, and he was filled with a vast sense of
helplessness. Not for the first time, he wondered what he was doing here and why he had come. He was
no Jon Arryn, to curb the wildness of his king and teach him wisdom. Robert would do what he pleased,
as he always had, and nothing Ned could say or do would change that. He belonged in Winterfell. He
belonged with Catelyn in her grief, and with Bran.
A man could not always be where he belonged, though. Resigned, Eddard Stark put his boots into his
horse and set off after the king.
TYRION
The north went on forever.
Tyrion Lannister knew the maps as well as anyone, but a fortnight on the wild track that passed for the
kingsroad up here had brought home the lesson that the map was one thing and the land quite another.
They had left Winterfell on the same day as the king, amidst all the commotion of the royal departure,
riding out to the sound of men shouting and horses snorting, to the rattle of wagons and the groaning of
the queen's huge wheelhouse, as a light snow flurried about them. The kingsroad was just beyond the
sprawl of castle and town. There the banners and the wagons and the columns of knights and freeriders
turned south, taking the tumult with them, while Tyrion turned north with Benjen Stark and his nephew.
It had grown colder after that, and far more quiet.
West of the road were flint hills, grey and rugged, with tall watchtowers on their stony summits. To the
east the land was lower, the ground flattening to a rolling plain that stretched away as far as the eye could
see. Stone bridges spanned swift, narrow rivers, while small farms spread in rings around holdfasts
walled in wood and stone. The road was well trafficked, and at night for their comfort there were rude
inns to be found.
Three days ride from Winterfell, however, the farmland gave way to
dense wood, and the kingsroad grew lonely. The flint hills rose higher and wilder with each passing mile,
until by the fifth day they had turned into mountains, cold blue-grey giants with jagged promontories and
snow on their shoulders. When the wind blew from the north, long plumes of ice crystals flew from the
high peaks like banners.
With the mountains a wall to the west, the road veered north by northeast through the wood, a forest of
oak and evergreen and black brier that seemed older and darker than any Tyrion had ever seen. "The
wolfswood," Benjen Stark called it, and indeed their nights came alive with the howls of distant packs,
and some not so distant. Jon Snow's albino direwolf pricked up his ears at the nightly howling, but never
raised his own voice in reply. There was something very unsettling about that animal, Tyrion thought.


There were eight in the party by then, not counting the wolf. Tyrion traveled with two of his own men, as
befit a Lannister. Benjen Stark had only his bastard nephew and some fresh mounts for the Night's
Watch, but at the edge of the wolfswood they stayed a night behind the wooden walls of a forest
holdfast, and there joined up with another of the black brothers, one Yoren. Yoren was stooped and
sinister, his features hidden behind a beard as black as his clothing, but he seemed as tough as an old root
and as hard as stone. With him were a pair of ragged peasant boys from the Fingers. "Rapers," Yoren
said with a cold look at his charges. Tyrion understood. Life on the Wall was said to be hard, but no
doubt it was preferable to castration.
Five men, three boys, a direwolf, twenty horses, and a cage of ravens given over to Benjen Stark by
Maester Luwin. No doubt they made a curious fellowship for the kingsroad, or any road.
Tyrion noticed Jon Snow watching Yoren and his sullen companions, with an odd cast to his face that
looked uncomfortably like dismay. Yoren had a twisted shoulder and a sour smell, his hair and beard
were matted and greasy and full of lice, his clothing old, patched, and seldom washed. His two young
recruits smelled even worse, and seemed as stupid as they were cruel.
No doubt the boy had made the mistake of thinking that the Night's Watch was made up of men like his
uncle. If so, Yoren and his companions were a rude awakening. Tyrion felt sorry for the boy. He had
chosen a hard life . . . or perhaps he should say that a hard life had been chosen for him.
He had rather less sympathy for the uncle. Benjen Stark seemed to share his brother's distaste for
Lannisters, and he had not been pleased when Tyrion had told him of his intentions. "I warn you,
Lannister, you'll find no inns at the Wall," he had said, looking down on him.
"No doubt you'll find some place to put me," Tyrion had replied. "As you might have noticed, I'm small."
One did not say no to the queen's brother, of course, so that had settled the matter, but Stark had not
been happy. "You will not like the ride, I promise you that," he'd said curtly, and since the moment they
set out, he had done all he could to live up to that promise.
By the end of the first week, Tyrion's thighs were raw from hard riding, his legs were cramping badly,
and he was chilled to the bone. He did not complain. He was damned if he would give Benjen Stark that
satisfaction.
He took a small revenge in the matter of his riding fur, a tattered bearskin, old and musty-smelling. Stark
had offered it to him in an excess of Night's Watch gallantry, no doubt expecting him to graciously
decline. Tyrion had accepted with a smile. He had brought his warmest clothing with him when they rode
out of Winterfell, and soon discovered that it was nowhere near warm enough. It was cold up here, and
growing colder. The nights were well below freezing now, and when the wind blew it was like a knife
cutting right through his warmest woolens. By now Stark was no doubt regretting his chivalrous impulse.
Perhaps he had learned a lesson. The Lannisters never declined, graciously or otherwise. The Lannisters
took what was offered.
Farms and holdfasts grew scarcer and smaller as they pressed northward, ever deeper into the darkness
of the wolfswood, until finally there were no more roofs to shelter under, and they were thrown back on
their own resources.


Tyrion was never much use in making a camp or breaking one. Too small, too hobbled, too in-the-way.
So while Stark and Yoren and the other men erected rude shelters, tended the horses, and built a fire, it
became his custom to take his fur and a wineskin and go off by himself to read.
On the eighteenth night of their journey, the wine was a rare sweet amber from the Summer Isles that he
had brought all the way north from Casterly Rock, and the book a rumination on the history and
properties of dragons. With Lord Eddard Stark's permission, Tyrion had borrowed a few rare volumes
from the Winterfell library and packed them for the ride north.
He found a comfortable spot just beyond the noise of the camp, beside a swift-running stream with
waters clear and cold as ice. A grotesquely ancient oak provided shelter from the biting wind. Tyrion
curled up in his fur with his back against the trunk, took a sip of the
wine, and began to read about the properties of dragonbone. Dragonbone is black because of its high
iron content, the book told him. It is strong as steel, yet lighter and far more flexible, and of course utterly
impervious to fire. Dragonbone bows are greatly prized by the Dothraki, and small wonder. An archer so
armed can outrange any wooden bow.
Tyrion had a morbid fascination with dragons. When he had first come to King's Landing for his sister's
wedding to Robert Baratheon, he had made it a point to seek out the dragon skulls that had hung on the
walls of Targaryen's throne room. King Robert had replaced them with banners and tapestries, but
Tyrion had persisted until he found the skulls in the dank cellar where they had been stored.
He had expected to find them impressive, perhaps even frightening. He had not thought to find them
beautiful. Yet they were. As black as onyx, polished smooth, so the bone seemed to shimmer in the light
of his torch. They liked the fire, he sensed. He'd thrust the torch into the mouth of one of the larger skulls
and made the shadows leap and dance on the wall behind him. The teeth were long, curving knives of
black diamond. The flame of the torch was nothing to them; they had bathed in the heat of far greater
fires. When he had moved away, Tyrion could have sworn that the beast's empty eye sockets had
watched him go.
There were nineteen skulls. The oldest was more than three thousand years old; the youngest a mere
century and a half. The most recent were also the smallest; a matched pair no bigger than mastiffs skulls,
and oddly misshapen, all that remained of the last two hatchlings born on Dragonstone. They were the
last of the Targaryen dragons, perhaps the last dragons anywhere, and they had not lived very long.
From there the skulls ranged upward in size to the three great monsters of song and story, the dragons
that Aegon Targaryen and his sisters had unleashed on the Seven Kingdoms of old. The singers had given
them the names of gods: Balerion, Meraxes, Vhaghar. Tyrion had stood between their gaping jaws,
wordless and awed. You could have ridden a horse down Vhaghar's gullet, although you would not have
ridden it out again. Meraxes was even bigger. And the greatest of them, Balerion, the Black Dread, could
have swallowed an aurochs whole, or even one of the hairy mammoths said to roam the cold wastes
beyond the Port of Ibben.
Tyrion stood in that dank cellar for a long time, staring at Balerion's huge, empty-eyed skull until his
torch burned low, trying to grasp the size of the living animal, to imagine how it must have looked when it
spread its great black wings and swept across the skies, breathing fire.
A GAML OF THRONES 109


His own remote ancestor, King Loren of the Rock, had tried to stand against the fire when he joined
with King Mern of the Reach to oppose the Targaryen conquest. That was close on three hundred years
ago, when the Seven Kingdoms were kingdoms, and not mere provinces of a greater realm. Between
them, the Two Kings had six hundred banners flying, five thousand mounted knights, and ten times as
many freeriders and men-at-arms. Aegon Dragonlord had perhaps a fifth that number, the chroniclers
said, and most of those were conscripts from the ranks of the last king he had slain, their loyalties
uncertain.
The hosts met on the broad plains of the Reach, amidst golden fields of wheat ripe for harvest. When the
Two Kings charged, the Targaryen army shivered and shattered and began to run. For a few moments,
the chroniclers wrote, the conquest was at an end . . . but only for those few moments, before Aegon
Targaryen and his sisters joined the battle.
It was the only time that Vhaghar, Meraxes, and Balerion were all unleashed at once. The singers called
it the Field of Fire.
Near four thousand men had burned that day, among them King Mern of the Reach. King Loren had
escaped, and lived long enough to surrender, pledge his fealty to the Targaryens, and beget a son, for
which Tyrion was duly grateful.
"Why do you read so much?"
Tyrion looked up at the sound of the voice. Jon Snow was standing a few feet away, regarding him
curiously. He closed the book on a finger and said, "Look at me and tell me what you see."
The boy looked at him suspiciously. "Is this some kind of trick? I see you. Tyrion Lannister."
Tyrion sighed. "You are remarkably polite for a bastard, Snow. What you see is a dwarf. You are what,
twelve?"
"Fourteen," the boy said.
"Fourteen, and you're taller than I will ever be. My legs are short and twisted, and I walk with difficulty.
I require a special saddle to keep from falling off my horse. A saddle of my own design, you may be
interested to know. It was either that or ride a pony. My arms are strong enough, but again, too short. I
will never make a swordsman. Had I been born a peasant, they might have left me out to die, or sold me
to some slaver's grotesquerie. Alas, I was born a Lannister of Casterly Rock, and the grotesqueries are
all the poorer. Things are expected of me. My father was the Hand of the King for twenty years. My
brother later killed that very same king, as it turns out, but life is full of these little ironies. My sister
married the new king and my
repulsive nephew will be king after him. I must do my part for the honor of my House, wouldn't you
agree? Yet how? Well, my legs may be too small for my body, but my head is too large, although I prefer
to think it is just large enough for my mind. I have a realistic grasp of my own strengths and weaknesses.
My mind is my weapon. My brother has his sword, King Robert has his warhammer, and I have my
mind . . . and a mind needs books as a sword needs a whetstone, if it is to keep its edge." Tyrion tapped
the leather cover of the book. "That's why I read so much, Jon Snow."


The boy absorbed that all in silence. He had the Stark face if not the name: long, solemn, guarded, a face
that gave nothing away. Whoever his mother had been, she had left little of herself in her son. "What are
you reading about?" he asked.
"Dragons," Tyrion told him.
"What good is that? There are no more dragons," the boy said with the easy certainty of youth.
"So they say," Tyrion replied. "Sad, isn't it? When I was your age, used to dream of having a dragon of
my own."
"You did?" the boy said suspiciously. Perhaps he thought Tyrion was making fun of him.
"Oh, yes. Even a stunted, twisted, ugly little boy can look down over the world when he's seated on a
dragon's back." Tyrion pushed the bearskin aside and climbed to his feet. "I used to start fires in the
bowels of Casterly Rock and stare at the flames for hours, pretending they were dragonfire. Sometimes
I'd imagine my father burning. At other times, my sister." Jon Snow was staring at him, a look equal parts
horror and fascination. Tyrion guffawed. "Don't look at me that way, bastard. I know your secret.
You've dreamt the same kind of dreams."
"No," Jon Snow said, horrified. "I wouldn't . . ."
"No? Never?" Tyrion raised an eyebrow. "Well, no doubt the Starks have been terribly good to you. I'm
certain Lady Stark treats you as if you were one of her own. And your brother Robb, he's always been
kind, and why not? He gets Winterfell and you get the Wall. And your father . . . he must have good
reasons for packing you off to the Night's Watch
"Stop it," Jon Snow said, his face dark with anger. "The Night's Watch is a noble calling!"
Tyrion laughed. "You're too smart to believe that. The Night's Watch is a midden heap for all the misfits
of the realm. I've seen you looking at Yoren and his boys. Those are your new brothers, Jon Snow, how
do you like them? Sullen peasants, debtors, poachers, rapers, thieves, and bastards like you all wind up
on the Wall, watching for
grumkins and snarks and all the other monsters your wet nurse warned you about. The good part is
there are no grumkins or snarks, so it's scarcely dangerous work. The bad part is you freeze your balls
off, but since you're not allowed to breed anyway, I don't suppose that matters."
"Stop it!" the boy screamed. He took a step forward, his hands coiling into fists, close to tears.
Suddenly, absurdly, Tyrion felt guilty. He took a step forward, intending to give the boy a reassuring pat
on the shoulder or mutter some word of apology.
He never saw the wolf, where it was or how it came at him. One moment he was walking toward Snow
and the next he was flat on his back on the hard rocky ground, the book spinning away from him as he
fell, the breath going out of him at the sudden impact, his mouth full of dirt and blood and rotting leaves.
As he tried to get up, his back spasmed painfully. He must have wrenched it in the fall. He ground his
teeth in frustration, grabbed a root, and pulled himself back to a sitting position. "Help me," he said to the
boy, reaching up a hand.


And suddenly the wolf was between them. He did not growl. The damned thing never made a sound. He
only looked at him with those bright red eyes, and showed him his teeth, and that was more than enough.
Tyrion sagged back to the ground with a grunt. "Don't help me, then. I'll sit right here until you leave."
Jon Snow stroked Ghost's thick white fur, smiling now. "Ask me nicely."
Tyrion Lannister felt the anger coiling inside him, and crushed it out with a will. It was not the first time in
his life he had been humiliated, and it would not be the last. Perhaps he even deserved this. "I should be
very grateful for your kind assistance, Jon," he said mildly.
"Down, Ghost," the boy said. The direwolf sat on his haunches. Those red eyes never left Tyrion. Jon
came around behind him, slid his hands under his arms, and lifted him easily to his feet. Then he picked
up the book and handed it back.
"Why did he attack me'?" Tyrion asked with a sidelong glance at the direwolf. He wiped blood and dirt
from his mouth with the back of his hand.
"Maybe he thought you were a grumkin."
Tyrion glanced at him sharply. Then he laughed, a raw snort of amusement that came bursting out
through his nose entirely without his permission. "Oh, gods," he said, choking on his laughter and shaking
his head, "I suppose I do rather look like a grumkin. What does he do to snarks?"
"You don't want to know." Jon picked up the wineskin and handed it to Tyrion.
Tyrion pulled out the stopper, tilted his head, and squeezed a long stream into his mouth. The wine was
cool fire as it trickled down his throat and warmed his belly. He held out the skin to Jon Snow. "Want
some?"
The boy took the skin and tried a cautious swallow. "It's true, isn't it?" he said when he was done. "What
you said about the Night's Watch."
Tyrion nodded.
Jon Snow set his mouth in a grim line. "If that's what it is, that's what it is."
Tyrion grinned at him. "That's good, bastard. Most men would rather deny a hard truth than face it."
"Most men," the boy said. "But not you."
"No," Tyrion admitted, "not me. I seldom even dream of dragons anymore. There are no dragons." He
scooped up the fallen bearskin. "Come, we had better return to camp before your uncle calls the
banners."
The walk was short, but the ground was rough underfoot and his legs were cramping badly by the time
they got back. Jon Snow offered a hand to help him over a thick tangle of roots, but Tyrion shook him
off. He would make his own way, as he had all his life. Still, the camp was a welcome sight. The shelters
had been thrown up against the tumbledown wall of a long-abandoned holdfast, a shield against the wind.


The horses had been fed and a fire had been laid. Yoren sat on a stone, skinning a squirrel. The savory
smell of stew filled Tyrion's nostrils. He dragged himself over to where his man Morrec was tending the
stewpot. Wordlessly, Morrec handed him the ladle. Tyrion tasted and handed it back. "More pepper,"
he said.
Benjen Stark emerged from the shelter he shared with his nephew. "There you are. Jon, damn it, don't
go off like that by yourself. I thought the Others had gotten you."
"It was the grumkins," Tyrion told him, laughing. Jon Snow smiled. Stark shot a baffled look at Yoren.
The old man grunted, shrugged, and went back to his bloody work.
The squirrel gave some body to the stew, and they ate it with black bread and hard cheese that night
around their fire. Tyrion shared around his skin of wine until even Yoren grew mellow. One by one the
company drifted off to their shelters and to sleep, all but Jon Snow, who had drawn the night's first
watch.
Tyrion was the last to retire, as always. As he stepped into the shelter his men had built for him, he
paused and looked back at Jon Snow. The boy stood near the fire, his face still and hard, looking deep
into the flames.
Tyrion Lannister smiled sadly and went to bed.
CATELYN
Ned and the girls were eight days gone when Maester Luwin came to her one night in Bran's sickroom,
carrying a reading lamp and the books of account. "It is past time that we reviewed the figures, my lady,"
he said. "You'll want to know how much this royal visit cost us."
Catelyn looked at Bran in his sickbed and brushed his hair back off his forehead. It had grown very
long, she realized. She would have to cut it soon. "I have no need to look at figures, Maester Luwin," she
told him, never taking her eyes from Bran. "I know what the visit cost us. Take the books away."
"My lady, the king's party had healthy appetites. We must replenish our stores before-"
She cut him off. "I said, take the books away. The steward will attend to our needs."
"We have no steward," Maester Luwin reminded her. Like a little grey rat, she thought, he would not let
go. "Poole went south to establish Lord Eddard's household at King's Landing."
Catelyn nodded absently. "Oh, yes. I remember." Bran looked so pale. She wondered whether they
might move his bed under the window, so he could get the morning sun.
Maester Luwin set the lamp in a niche by the door and fiddled with its wick. "There are several
appointments that require your immediate


attention, my lady. Besides the steward, we need a captain of the guards to fill Jory's place, a new
master of horse-"
Her eyes snapped around and found him. "A master of horse?" Her voice was a whip.
The maester was shaken. "Yes, my lady. Hullen rode south with Lord Eddard, so-"
"My son lies here broken and dying, Luwin, and you wish to discuss a new master of horse? Do you
think I care what happens in the stables? Do you think it matters to me one whit? I would gladly butcher
every horse in Winterfell with my own hands if it would open Bran's eyes, do you understand that? Do
you?"
He bowed his head. "Yes, my lady, but the appointments-"
"I'll make the appointments," Robb said.
Catelyn had not heard him enter, but there he stood in the doorway, looking at her. She had been
shouting, she realized with a sudden flush of shame. What was happening to her? She was so tired, and
her head hurt all the time.
Maester Luwin looked from Catelyn to her son. "I have prepared a list of those we might wish to
consider for the vacant offices," he said, offering Robb a paper plucked from his sleeve.
Her son glanced at the names. He had come from outside, Catelyn saw; his cheeks were red from the
cold, his hair shaggy and windblown. "Good men," he said. "We'll talk about them tomorrow." He
handed back the list of names.
"Very good, my lord." The paper vanished into his sleeve.
"Leave us now," Robb said. Maester Luwin bowed and departed. Robb closed the door behind him
and turned to her. He was wearing a sword, she saw. "Mother, what are you doing?"
Catelyn had always thought Robb looked like her; like Bran and Rickon and Sansa, he had the Tully
coloring, the auburn hair, the blue eyes. Yet now for the first time she saw something of Eddard Stark in
his face, something as stern and hard as the north. "What am I doing?" she echoed, puzzled. "How can
you ask that? What do you imagine I'm doing? I am taking care of your brother. I am taking care of
Bran."
"Is that what you call it? You haven't left this room since Bran was hurt. You didn't even come to the
gate when Father and the girls went south."
"I said my farewells to them here, and watched them ride out from that window." She had begged Ned
not to go, not now, not after what had happened; everything had changed now, couldn't he see that? It
was no use. He had no choice, he had told her, and then he left, choosing. "I can't leave him, even for a
moment, not when any moment
could be his last. I have to be with him, if ... if ."She took her son's limp hand, sliding his fingers
through her own. He was so frail and thin, with no strength left in his hand, but she could still feel the
warmth of life through his skin.


Robb's voice softened. "He's not going to die, Mother. Maester Luwin says the time of greatest danger
has passed."
"And what if Maester Luwin is wrong? What if Bran needs me and I'm not here?"
"Rickon needs you," Robb said sharply. "He's only three, he doesn't understand what's happening. He
thinks everyone has deserted him, so he follows me around all day, clutching my leg and crying. I don't
know what to do with him." He paused a moment, chewing on his lower lip the way he'd done when he
was little. "Mother, I need you too. I'm trying but I can't . . . I can't do it all by myself." His voice broke
with sudden emotion, and Catelyn remembered that he was only fourteen. She wanted to get up and go
to him, but Bran was still holding her hand and she could not move.
Outside the tower, a wolf began to howl. Catelyn trembled, just for a second.
"Bran's." Robb opened the window and let the night air into the stuffy tower room. The howling grew
louder. It was a cold and lonely sound, full of melancholy and despair.
"Don't," she told him. "Bran needs to stay warm."
"He needs to hear them sing," Robb said. Somewhere out in Winterfell, a second wolf began to howl in
chorus with the first. Then a third, closer. "Shaggydog and Grey Wind," Robb said as their voices rose
and fell together. "You can tell them apart if you listen close."
Catelyn was shaking. It was the grief, the cold, the howling of the direwolves. Night after night, the
howling and the cold wind and the grey empty castle, on and on they went, never changing, and her boy
lying there broken, the sweetest of her children, the gentlest, Bran who loved to laugh and climb and
dreamt of knighthood, all gone now, she would never hear him laugh again. Sobbing, she pulled her hand
free of his and covered her ears against those terrible howls. "Make them stop!" she cried. "I can't stand
it, make them stop, make them stop, kill them all if you must, just make them stop!"
She didn't remember falling to the floor, but there she was, and Robb was lifting her, holding her in
strong arms. "Don't be afraid, Mother. They would never hurt him." He helped her to her narrow bed in
the corner of the sickroom. "Close your eyes," he said gently. "Rest. Maester Luwin tells me you've
hardly slept since Bran's fall."
"I can't," she wept. "Gods forgive me, Robb, I can't, what if he dies
while I'm asleep, what if he dies, what if he dies . . ." The wolves were still howling. She screamed and
held her ears again. "Oh, gods, close the window!"
"If you swear to me you'll sleep." Robb went to the window, but as he reached for the shutters another
sound was added to the mournful howling of the direwolves. "Dogs," he said, listening. "All the dogs are
barking. They've never done that before . . ." Catelyn heard his breath catch in his throat. When she
looked up, his face was pale in the lamplight. "Fire, " he whispered.
Fire, she thought, and then, Bran! "Help me," she said urgently, sitting up. "Help me with Bran."
Robb did not seem to hear her. "The library tower's on fire," he said.


Catelyn could see the flickering reddish light through the open window now. She sagged with relief. Bran
was safe. The library was across the bailey, there was no way the fire would reach them here. "Thank the
gods," she whispered.
Robb looked at her as if she'd gone mad. "Mother, stay here. I'll come back as soon as the fire's out."
He ran then. She heard him shout to the guards outside the room, heard them descending together in a
wild rush, taking the stairs two and three at a time.
Outside, there were shouts of "Fire!" in the yard, screams, running footsteps, the whinny of frightened
horses, and the frantic barking of the castle dogs. The howling was gone, she realized as she listened to
the cacophony. The direwolves had fallen silent.
Catelyn said a silent prayer of thanks to the seven faces of god as she went to the window. Across the
bailey, long tongues of flame shot from the windows of the library. She watched the smoke rise into the
sky and thought sadly of all the books the Starks had gathered over the centuries. Then she closed the
shutters.
When she turned away from the window, the man was in the room with her.
"You weren't s'posed to be here," he muttered sourly. "No one was s'posed to be here."
He was a small, dirty man in filthy brown clothing, and he stank of horses. Catelyn knew all the men who
worked in their stables, and he was none of them. He was gaunt, with limp blond hair and pale eyes
deep-sunk in a bony face, and there was a dagger in his hand.
Catelyn looked at the knife, then at Bran. "No," she said. The word stuck in her throat, the merest
whisper.
He must have heard her. "It's a mercy," he said. "He's dead already."
"No," Catelyn said, louder now as she found her voice again. "No, you can't." She spun back toward the
window to scream for help, but the man moved faster than she would have believed. One hand clamped
down over her mouth and yanked back her head, the other brought the dagger up to her windpipe. The
stench of him was overwhelming.
She reached up with both hands and grabbed the blade with all her strength, pulling it away from her
throat. She heard him cursing into her ear. Her fingers were slippery with blood, but she would not let go
of the dagger. The hand over her mouth clenched more tightly, shutting off her air. Catelyn twisted her
head to the side and managed to get a piece of his flesh between her teeth. She bit down hard into his
palm. The man grunted in pain. She ground her teeth together and tore at him, and all of a sudden he let
go. The taste of his blood filled her mouth. She sucked in air and screamed, and he grabbed her hair and
pulled her away from him, and she stumbled and went down, and then he was standing over her,
breathing hard, shaking. The dagger was still clutched tightly in his right hand, slick with blood. "You
weren't s'posed to be here," he repeated stupidly.
Catelyn saw the shadow slip through the open door behind him. There was a low rumble, less than a
snarl, the merest whisper of a threat, but he must have heard something, because he started to turn just as
the wolf made its leap. They went down together, half sprawled over Catelyn where she'd fallen. The


wolf had him under the jaw. The man's shriek lasted less than a second before the beast wrenched back
its head, taking out half his throat.
His blood felt like warm rain as it sprayed across her face.
The wolf was looking at her. Its jaws were red and wet and its eyes glowed golden in the dark room. It
was Bran's wolf, she realized. Of course it was. "Thank you," Catelyn whispered, her voice faint and tiny.
She lifted her hand, trembling. The wolf padded closer, sniffed at her fingers, then licked at the blood
with a wet rough tongue. When it had cleaned all the blood off her hand, it turned away silently and
jumped up on Bran's bed and lay down beside him. Catelyn began to laugh hysterically.
That was the way they found them, when Robb and Maester Luwin and Ser Rodrik burst in with half the
guards in Winterfell. When the laughter finally died in her throat, they wrapped her in warm blankets and
led her back to the Great Keep, to her own chambers. Old Nan undressed her and helped her into a
scalding hot bath and washed the blood off her with a soft cloth.
Afterward Maester Luwin arrived to dress her wounds. The cuts in
A CAME OF THRONES 119
her fingers went deep, almost to the bone, and her scalp was raw and bleeding where he'd pulled out a
handful of hair. The maester told her the pain was just starting now, and gave her milk of the poppy to
help her sleep.
Finally she closed her eyes.
When she opened them again, they told her that she had slept four days. Catelyn nodded and sat up in
bed. It all seemed like a nightmare to her now, everything since Bran's fall, a terrible dream of blood and
grief, but she had the pain in her hands to remind her that it was real. She felt weak and light-headed, yet
strangely resolute, as if a great weight had lifted from her.
"Bring me some bread and honey," she told her servants, "and take word to Maester Luwin that my
bandages want changing." They looked at her in surprise and ran to do her bidding.
Catelyn remembered the way she had been before, and she was ashamed. She had let them all down,
her children, her husband, her House. It would not happen again. She would show these northerners how
strong a Tully of Riverrun could be.
Robb arrived before her food. Rodrik Cassel came with him, and her husband's ward Theon Greyjoy,
and lastly Hallis Mollen, a muscular guardsman with a square brown beard. He was the new captain of
the guard, Robb said. Her son was dressed in boiled leather and ringmail, she saw, and a sword hung at
his waist.
"Who was he?" Catelyn asked them.
"No one knows his name," Hallis Mollen told her. "He was no man of Winterfell, m'lady, but some says
they seen him here and about the castle these past few weeks."
"One of the king's men, then," she said, "or one of the Lannisters'. He could have waited behind when
the others left."


"Maybe," Hal said. "With all these strangers filling up Winterfell of late, there's no way of saying who he
belonged to."
"He'd been biding in your stables," Greyjoy said. "You could smell it on him."
"And how could he go unnoticed?" she said sharply.
Hallis Mollen looked abashed. "Between the horses Lord Eddard took south and them we sent north to
the Night's Watch, the stalls were half-empty. It were no great trick to hide from the stableboys. Could
be Hodor saw him, the talk is that boy's been acting queer, but simple as he is . . ." Hal shook his head.
"We found where he'd been sleeping," Robb put in. "He had ninety silver stags in a leather bag buried
beneath the straw."
"It's good to know my son's life was not sold cheaply," Catelyn said bitterly.
Hallis Mollen looked at her, confused. "Begging your grace, m'lady, you saying he was out to kill your
boy?"
Greyjoy was doubtful. "That's madness."
"He came for Bran," Catelyn said. "He kept muttering how I wasn't supposed to be there. He set the
library fire thinking I would rush to put it out, taking any guards with me. If I hadn't been half-mad with
grief, it would have worked."
"Why would anyone want to kill Bran?" Robb said. "Gods, he's only a little boy, helpless, sleeping . . ."
Catelyn gave her firstborn a challenging look. "If you are to rule in the north, you must think these things
through, Robb. Answer your own question. Why would anyone want to kill a sleeping child?"
Before he could answer, the servants returned with a plate of food fresh from the kitchen. There was
much more than she'd asked for: hot bread, butter and honey and blackberry preserves, a rasher of
bacon and a soft-boiled egg, a wedge of cheese, a pot of mint tea. And with it came Maester Luwin.
"How is my son, Maester?" Catelyn looked at all the food and found she had no appetite.
Maester Luwin lowered his eyes. "Unchanged, my lady."
It was the reply she had expected, no more and no less. Her hands throbbed with pain, as if the blade
were still in her, cutting deep. She sent the servants away and looked back to Robb. "Do you have the
answer yet?"
"Someone is afraid Bran might wake up," Robb said, "afraid of what he might say or do, afraid of
something he knows."
Catelyn was proud of him. "Very good." She turned to the new captain of the guard. "We must keep
Bran safe. If there was one killer, there could be others."
"How many guards do you want, rn'lady?" Hal asked.


"So long as Lord Eddard is away, my son is the master of Winterfell," she told him.
Robb stood a little taller. "Put one man in the sickroom, night and day, one outside the door, two at the
bottom of the stairs. No one sees Bran without my warrant or my mother's."
"As you say, m'lord."
"Do it now," Catelyn suggested.
"And let his wolf stay in the room with him," Robb added.
"Yes," Catelyn said. And then again: "Yes."
Hallis Mollen bowed and left the room.
"Lady Stark," Ser Rodrik said when the guardsman had gone, "did you chance to notice the dagger the
killer used?"
"The circumstances did not allow me to examine it closely, but I can vouch for its edge," Catelyn replied
with a dry smile. "Why do you ask?"
"We found the knife still in the villain's grasp. It seemed to me that it was altogether too fine a weapon
for such a man, so I looked at it long and hard. The blade is Valyrian steel, the hilt dragonbone. A
weapon like that has no business being in the hands of such as him. Someone gave it to him."
Catelyn nodded, thoughtful. "Robb, close the door."
He looked at her strangely, but did as she told him.
"What I am about to tell you must not leave this room," she told them. "I want your oaths on that. If even
part of what I suspect is true, Ned and my girls have ridden into deadly danger, and a word in the wrong
ears could mean their lives."
"Lord Eddard is a second father to me," said Theon Greyjoy. "I do so swear."
"You have my oath," Maester Luwin said.
"And mine, my lady," echoed Ser Rodrik.
She looked at her son. "And you, Robb?"
He nodded his consent.
"My sister Lysa believes the Lannisters murdered her husband, Lord Arryn, the Hand of the King,"
Catelyn told them. "It comes to me that Jaime Lannister did not join the hunt the day Bran fell. He
remained here in the castle." The room was deathly quiet. "I do not think Bran fell from that tower," she
said into the stillness. "I think he was thrown."


The shock was plain on their faces. "My lady, that is a monstrous suggestion," said Rodrik Cassel. "Even
the Kingslayer would flinch at the murder of an innocent child."
"Oh, would he?" Theon Greyjoy asked. "I wonder."
"There is no limit to Lannister pride or Lannister ambition," Catelyn said.
"The boy had always been surehanded in the past," Maester Luwin said thoughtfully. "He knew every
stone in Winterfell."
"Gods, " Robb swore, his young face dark with anger. "If this is true, he will pay for it." He drew his
sword and waved it in the air. "I'll kill him myself!"
Ser Rodrik bristled at him. "Put that away! The Lannisters are a hundred leagues away. Never draw
your sword unless you mean to use it. How many times must I tell you, foolish boy?"
122 GLORGL R.R. MARTIN
Abashed, Robb sheathed his sword, suddenly a child again. Catelyn said to Ser Rodrik, "I see my son is
wearing steel now."
The old master-at-arms said, "I thought it was time."
Robb was looking at her anxiously. "Past time," she said. "Winterfell may have need of all its swords
soon, and they had best not be made of wood."
Theon Greyjoy put a hand on the hilt of his blade and said, "My lady, if it comes to that, my House owes
yours a great debt."
Maester Luwin pulled at his chain collar where it chafed against his neck. "All we have is conjecture.
This is the queen's beloved brother we mean to accuse. She will not take it kindly. We must have proof,
or forever keep silent."
"Your proof is in the dagger," Ser Rodrik said. "A fine blade like that will not have gone unnoticed."
There was only one place to find the truth of it, Catelyn realized. "Someone must go to King's Landing."
"I'll go," Robb said.
"No," she told him. "Your place is here. There must always be a Stark in Winterfell." She looked at Ser
Rodrik with his great white whiskers, at Maester Luwin in his grey robes, at young Greyjoy, lean and
dark and impetuous. Who to send? Who would be believed? Then she knew. Catelyn struggled to push
back the blankets, her bandaged fingers as stiff and unyielding as stone. She climbed out of bed. "I must
go myself."
"My lady," said Maester Luwin, "is that wise? Surely the Lannisters would greet your arrival with
suspicion."
"What about Bran?" Robb asked. The poor boy looked utterly confused now. "You can't mean to leave
him."


"I have done everything I can for Bran," she said, laying a wounded hand on his arm. "His life is in the
hands of the gods and Maester Luwin. As you reminded me yourself, Robb, I have other children to
think of now."
"You will need a strong escort, my lady," Theon said.
"I'll send Hal with a squad of guardsmen," Robb said.
"No," Catelyn said. "A large party attracts unwelcome attention. I would not have the Lannisters know I
am coming."
Ser Rodrik protested. "My lady, let me accompany you at least. The kingsroad can be perilous for a
woman alone."
"I will not be taking the kingsroad," Catelyn replied. She thought for a moment, then nodded her
consent. "Two riders can move as fast as one, and a good deal faster than a long column burdened by
wagons
and wheelhouses. I will welcome your company, Ser Rodrik. We will follow the White Knife down to
the sea, and hire a ship at White Harbor. Strong horses and brisk winds should bring us to King's
Landing well ahead of Ned and the Lannisters." And then, she thought, we shall see what we shall see.
SANSA
Eddard Stark had left before dawn, Septa Mordane informed Sansa as they broke their fast. "The king
sent for him. Another hunt, I do believe. There are still wild aurochs in these lands, I am told."
"I've never seen an aurochs," Sansa said, feeding a piece of bacon to Lady under the table. The direwolf
took it from her hand, as delicate as a queen.
Septa Mordane sniffed in disapproval. "A noble lady does not feed dogs at her table," she said, breaking
off another piece of comb and letting the honey drip down onto her bread.
"She's not a dog, she's a direwolf," Sansa pointed out as Lady licked her fingers with a rough tongue.
"Anyway, Father said we could keep them with us if we want."
The septa was not appeased. "You're a good girl, Sansa, but I do vow, when it comes to that creature
you're as willful as your sister Arya." She scowled. "And where is Arya this morning?"
"She wasn't hungry," Sansa said, knowing full well that her sister had probably stolen down to the
kitchen hours ago and wheedled a breakfast out of some cook's boy.
"Do remind her to dress nicely today. The grey velvet, perhaps. We are all invited to ride with the queen
and Princess Myrcella in the royal wheelhouse, and we must look our best."


Sansa already looked her best. She had brushed out her long auburn hair until it shone, and picked her
nicest blue silks. She had been looking forward to today for more than a week. It was a great honor to
ride with the queen, and besides, Prince Joffrey might be there. Her betrothed. Just thinking it made her
feel a strange fluttering inside, even though they were not to marry for years and years. Sansa did not
really know Joffrey yet, but she was already in love with him. He was all she ever dreamt her prince
should be, tall and handsome and strong, with hair like gold. She treasured every chance to spend time
with him, few as they were. The only thing that scared her about today was Arya. Arya had a way of
ruining everything. You never knew what she would do. "I'll tell her," Sansa said uncertainly, "but she'll
dress the way she always does." She hoped it wouldn't be too embarrassing. "May I be excused?"
"You may." Septa Mordane helped herself to more bread and honey, and Sansa slid from the bench.
Lady followed at her heels as she ran from the inn's common room.
Outside, she stood for a moment amidst the shouts and curses and the creak of wooden wheels as the
men broke down the tents and pavilions and loaded the wagons for another day's march. The inn was a
sprawling three-story structure of pale stone, the biggest that Sansa had ever seen, but even so, it had
accommodations for less than a third of the king's party, which had swollen to more than four hundred
with the addition of her father's household and the freeriders who had joined them on the road.
She found Arya on the banks of the Trident, trying to hold Nymeria still while she brushed dried mud
from her fur. The direwolf was not enjoying the process. Arya was wearing the same riding leathers she
had worn yesterday and the day before.
"You better put on something pretty," Sansa told her. "Septa Mordane said so. We're traveling in the
queen's wheelhouse with Princess Myrcella today."
"I'm not," Arya said, trying to brush a tangle out of Nymeria's matted grey fur. "Mycah and I are going to
ride upstream and look for rubies at the ford."
"Rubies," Sansa said, lost. "What rubies?"
Arya gave her a look like she was so stupid. "Rhaegar's rubies. This is where King Robert killed him and
won the crown."
Sansa regarded her scrawny little sister in disbelief. "You can't look for rubies, the princess is expecting
us. The queen invited us both."
"I don't care," Arya said. "The wheelhouse doesn't even have windows, you can't see a thing."
"What could you want to see?" Sansa said, annoyed. She had been thrilled by the invitation, and her
stupid sister was going to ruin everything, just as she'd feared. "It's all just fields and farms and holdfasts."
"It is not," Arya said stubbornly. "If you came with us sometimes, you'd see."
"I hate riding," Sansa said fervently. "All it does is get you soiled and dusty and sore."
Arya shrugged. "Hold still, " she snapped at Nymeria, "I'm not hurting you." Then to Sansa she said,
"When we were crossing the Neck, I counted thirty-six flowers I never saw before, and Mycah showed
me a lizard-lion."


Sansa shuddered. They had been twelve days crossing the Neck, rumbling down a crooked causeway
through an endless black bog, and she had hated every moment of it. The air had been damp and
clammy, the causeway so narrow they could not even make proper camp at night, they had to stop right
on the kingsroad. Dense thickets of halfdrowned trees pressed close around them, branches dripping
with curtains of pale fungus. Huge flowers bloomed in the mud and floated on pools of stagnant water,
but if you were stupid enough to leave the causeway to pluck them, there were quicksands waiting to
suck you down, and snakes watching from the trees, and lizard-lions floating half-submerged in the
water, like black logs with eyes and teeth.
None of which stopped Arya, of course. One day she came back grinning her horsey grin, her hair all
tangled and her clothes covered in mud, clutching a raggedy bunch of purple and green flowers for
Father. Sansa kept hoping he would tell Arya to behave herself and act like the highborn lady she was
supposed to be, but he never did, he only hugged her and thanked her for the flowers. That just made her
worse.
Then it turned out the purple flowers were called poison kisses, and Arya got a rash on her arms. Sansa
would have thought that might have taught her a lesson, but Arya laughed about it, and the next day she
rubbed mud all over her arms like some ignorant bog woman just because her friend Mycah told her it
would stop the itching. She had bruises on her arms and shoulders too, dark purple welts and faded
green-and-yellow splotches, Sansa had seen them when her sister undressed for sleep. How she had
gotten those only the seven gods knew.
Arya was still going on, brushing out Nymeria's tangles and chattering about things she'd seen on the trek
south. "Last week we found this haunted watchtower, and the day before we chased a herd of wild
horses. You should have seen them run when they caught a scent of
Nymeria." The wolf wriggled in her grasp and Arya scolded her. "Stop that, I have to do the other side,
you're all muddy."
"You're not supposed to leave the column," Sansa reminded her. "Father said so."
Arya shrugged. "I didn't go far. Anyway, Nymeria was with me the whole time. I don't always go off,
either. Sometimes it's fun just to ride along with the wagons and talk to people."
Sansa knew all about the sorts of people Arya liked to talk to: squires and grooms and serving girls, old
men and naked children, rough-spoken freeriders of uncertain birth. Arya would make friends with
anybody. This Mycah was the worst; a butcher's boy, thirteen and wild, he slept in the meat wagon and
smelled of the slaughtering block. Just the sight of him was enough to make Sansa feel sick, but Arya
seemed to prefer his company to hers.
Sansa was running out of patience now. "You have to come with me," she told her sister firmly. "You
can't refuse the queen. Septa Mordane will expect you."
Arya ignored her. She gave a hard yank with the brush. Nymeria growled and spun away, affronted.
"Come back here!"
"There's going to be lemon cakes and tea," Sansa went on, all adult and reasonable. Lady brushed
against her leg. Sansa scratched her ears the way she liked, and Lady sat beside her on her haunches,


watching Arya chase Nymeria. "Why would you want to ride a smelly old horse and get all sore and
sweaty when you could recline on feather pillows and eat cakes with the queen?"
"I don't like the queen," Arya said casually. Sansa sucked in her breath, shocked that even Arya would
say such a thing, but her sister prattled on, heedless. "She won't even let me bring Nymeria." She thrust
the brush under her belt and stalked her wolf. Nymeria watched her approach warily.
"A royal wheelhouse is no place for a wolf," Sansa said. "And Princess Myrcella is afraid of them, you
know that."
"Myrcella is a little baby." Arya grabbed Nymeria around her neck, but the moment she pulled out the
brush again the direwolf wriggled free and bounded off. Frustrated, Arya threw down the brush. "Bad
wolf!" she shouted.
Sansa couldn't help but smile a little. The kennelmaster once told her that an animal takes after its master.
She gave Lady a quick little hug. Lady licked her cheek. Sansa giggled. Arya heard and whirled around,
glaring. "I don't care what you say, I'm going out riding." Her long horsey face got the stubborn look that
meant she was going to do something willful.
"Gods be true, Arya, sometimes you act like such a child," Sansa said. "I'll go by myself then. It will be
ever so much nicer that way. Lady and I will eat all the lemon cakes and just have the best time without
you."
She turned to walk off, but Arya shouted after her, "They won't let you bring Lady either." She was gone
before Sansa could think of a reply, chasing Nymeria along the river.
Alone and humiliated, Sansa took the long way back to the inn, where she knew Septa Mordane would
be waiting. Lady padded quietly by her side. She was almost in tears. All she wanted was for things to be
nice and pretty, the way they were in the songs. Why couldn't Arya be sweet and delicate and kind, like
Princess Myrcella? She would have liked a sister like that.
Sansa could never understand how two sisters, born only two years apart, could be so different. It
would have been easier if Arya had been a bastard, like their half brother Jon. She even looked like Jon,
with the long face and brown hair of the Starks, and nothing of their lady mother in her face or her
coloring. And Jon's mother had been common, or so people whispered. Once, when she was littler,
Sansa had even asked Mother if perhaps there hadn't been some mistake. Perhaps the grumkins had
stolen her real sister. But Mother had only laughed and said no, Arya was her daughter and Sansa's
trueborn sister, blood of their blood. Sansa could not think why Mother would want to lie about it, so she
supposed it had to be true.
As she neared the center of camp, her distress was quickly forgotten. A crowd had gathered around the
queen's wheelhouse. Sansa heard excited voices buzzing like a hive of bees. The doors had been thrown
open, she saw, and the queen stood at the top of the wooden steps, smiling down at someone. She heard
her saying, "The council does us great honor, my good lords."
"What's happening?" she asked a squire she knew.
"The council sent riders from King's Landing to escort us the rest of the way," he told her. "An honor
guard for the king."


Anxious to see, Sansa let Lady clear a path through the crowd. People moved aside hastily for the
direwolf. When she got closer, she saw two knights kneeling before the queen, in armor so fine and
gorgeous that it made her blink.
One knight wore an intricate suit of white enameled scales, brilliant as a field of new-fallen snow, with
silver chasings and clasps that glittered in the sun. When he removed his helm, Sansa saw that he was an
old man with hair as pale as his armor, yet he seemed strong and
graceful for all that. From his shoulders hung the pure white cloak of the Kingsguard.
His companion was a man near twenty whose armor was steel plate of a deep forest-green. He was the
handsomest man Sansa had ever set eyes upon; tall and powerfully made, with jet-black hair that fell to
his shoulders and framed a clean-shaven face, and laughing green eyes to match his armor. Cradled
under one arm was an antlered helm, its magnificent rack shimmering in gold.
At first Sansa did not notice the third stranger. He did not kneel with the others. He stood to one side,
beside their horses, a gaunt grim man who watched the proceedings in silence. His face was pockmarked
and beardless, with deepset eyes and hollow cheeks. Though he was not an old man, only a few wisps of
hair remained to him, sprouting above his ears, but those he had grown long as a woman's. His armor
was iron-grey chainmail over layers of boiled leather, plain and unadorned, and it spoke of age and hard
use. Above his right shoulder the stained leather hilt of the blade strapped to his back was visible; a
two-handed greatsword, too long to be worn at his side.
"The king is gone hunting, but I know he will be pleased to see you when he returns," the queen was
saying to the two knights who knelt before her, but Sansa could not take her eyes off the third man. He
seemed to feel the weight of her gaze. Slowly he turned his head. Lady growled. A terror as
overwhelming as anything Sansa Stark had ever felt filled her suddenly. She stepped backward and
bumped into someone.
Strong hands grasped her by the shoulders, and for a moment Sansa thought it was her father, but when
she turned, it was the burned face of Sandor Clegane looking down at her, his mouth twisted in a terrible
mockery of a smile. "You are shaking, girl," he said, his voice rasping. "Do I frighten you so much?"
He did, and had since she had first laid eyes on the ruin that fire had made of his face, though it seemed
to her now that he was not half so terrifying as the other. Still, Sansa wrenched away from him, and the
Hound laughed, and Lady moved between them, rumbling a warning. Sansa dropped to her knees to
wrap her arms around the wolf. They were all gathered around gaping, she could feel their eyes on her,
and here and there she heard muttered comments and titters of laughter.
"A wolf," a man said, and someone else said, "Seven hells, that's a direwolf," and the first man said,
"What's it doing in camp?" and the Hound's rasping voice replied, "The Starks use them for wet nurses,"
and Sansa realized that the two stranger knights were looking down on
her and Lady, swords in their hands, and then she was frightened again, and ashamed. Tears filled her
eyes.


She heard the queen say, "Joffrey, go to her."
And her prince was there.
"Leave her alone," Joffrey said. He stood over her, beautiful in blue wool and black leather, his golden
curls shining in the sun like a crown. He gave her his hand, drew her to her feet. "What is it, sweet lady?
Why are you afraid? No one will hurt you. Put away your swords, all of you. The wolf is her little pet,
that's all." He looked at Sandor Clegane. "And you, dog, away with you, you're scaring my betrothed."
The Hound, ever faithful, bowed and slid away quietly through the press. Sansa struggled to steady
herself. She felt like such a fool. She was a Stark of Winterfell, a noble lady, and someday she would be
a queen. "It was not him, my sweet prince," she tried to explain. "It was the other one."
The two stranger knights exchanged a look. "Payne?" chuckled the young man in the green armor.
The older man in white spoke to Sansa gently. "Ofttimes Ser Ilyn frightens me as well, sweet lady. He
has a fearsome aspect."
"As well he should." The queen had descended from the wheelhouse. The spectators parted to make
way for her. "If the wicked do not fear the Mng's Justice, you have put the wrong man in the office."
Sansa finally found her words. "Then surely you have chosen the right one, Your Grace," she said, and a
gale of laughter erupted all around her.
"Well spoken, child," said the old man in white. "As befits the daughter of Eddard Stark. I am honored
to know you, however irregular the manner of our meeting. I am Ser Barristan Selmy, of the
Kingsguard." He bowed.
Sansa knew the name, and now the courtesies that Septa Mordane had taught her over the years came
back to her. "The Lord Commander of the Kingsguard," she said, "and councillor to Robert our king and
to Aerys Targaryen before him. The honor is mine, good knight. Even in the far north, the singers praise
the deeds of Barristan the Bold."
The green knight laughed again. "Barristan the Old, you mean. Don't flatter him too sweetly, child, he
thinks overmuch of himself already." He smiled at her. "Now, wolf girl, if you can put a name to me as
well, then I must concede that you are truly our Hand's daughter."
Joffrey stiffened beside her. "Have a care how you address my betrothed."
can answer," Sansa said quickly, to quell her prince's anger. She smiled at the green knight. "Your
helmet bears golden antlers, my lord. The stag is the sigil of the royal House. King Robert has two
brothers. By your extreme youth, you can only be Renly Baratheon, Lord of Storm's End and councillor
to the king, and so I name you."
Ser Barristan chuckled. "By his extreme youth, he can only be a prancing jackanapes, and so I name
him."
There was general laughter, led by Lord Renly himself. The tension of a few moments ago was gone,
and Sansa was beginning to feel comfortable . . . until Ser Ilyn Payne shouldered two men aside, and


stood before her, unsmiling. He did not say a word. Lady bared her teeth and began to growl, a low
rumble full of menace, but this time Sansa silenced the wolf with a gentle hand to the head. "I am sorry if I
offended you, Ser Ilyn," she said.
She waited for an answer, but none came. As the headsman looked at her, his pale colorless eyes
seemed to strip the clothes away from her, and then the skin, leaving her soul naked before him. Still
silent, he turned and walked away.
Sansa did not understand. She looked at her prince. "Did I say something wrong, Your Grace? Why will
he not speak to me?"
"Ser Ilyn has not been feeling talkative these past fourteen years," Lord Renly commented with a sly
smile.
Joffrey gave his uncle a look of pure loathing, then took Sansa's hands in his own. "Aerys Targaryen had
his tongue ripped out with hot pincers."
"He speaks most eloquently with his sword, however," the queen said, "and his devotion to our realm is
unquestioned." Then she smiled graciously and said, "Sansa, the good councillors and I must speak
together until the king returns with your father. I fear we shall have to postpone your day with Myrcella.
Please give your sweet sister my apologies. Joffrey, perhaps you would be so kind as to entertain our
guest today."
"It would be my pleasure, Mother," Joffrey said very formally. He took her by the arm and led her away
from the wheelhouse, and Sansa's spirits took flight. A whole day with her prince! She gazed at Joffrey
worshipfully. He was so gallant, she thought. The way he had rescued her from Ser Ilyn and the Hound,
why, it was almost like the songs, like the time Serwyn of the Mirror Shield saved the Princess Daeryssa
from the giants, or Prince Aemon the Dragonknight championing Queen Naerys's honor against evil Ser
Morgil's slanders.
The touch of Joffrey's hand on her sleeve made her heart beat faster. "What would you like to do?"
Be with you, Sansa thought, but she said, "Whatever you'd like to do, my prince."
Jofftey reflected a moment. "We could go riding."
"Oh, I love riding," Sansa said.
Joffrey glanced back at Lady, who was following at their heels. "Your wolf is liable to frighten the
horses, and my dog seems to frighten you. Let us leave them both behind and set off on our own, what
do you say?"
Sansa hesitated. "If you like," she said uncertainly. "I suppose I could tie Lady up." She did not quite
understand, though. "I didn't know you had a dog . . ."
Joffrey laughed. "He's my mother's dog, in truth. She has set him to guard me, and so he does."
"You mean the Hound," she said. She wanted to hit herself for being so slow. Her prince would never
love her if she seemed stupid. "Is it safe to leave him behind?"


Prince Joffrey looked annoyed that she would even ask. "Have no fear, lady. I am almost a man grown,
and I don't fight with wood like your brothers. All I need is this." He drew his sword and showed it to
her; a longsword adroitly shrunken to suit a boy of twelve, gleaming blue steel, castle-forged and
double-edged, with a leather grip and a lion's-head pommel in gold. Sansa exclaimed over it admiringly,
and Joffrey looked pleased. "I call it Lion's Tooth," he said.
And so they left her direwolf and his bodyguard behind them, while they ranged east along the north
bank of the Trident with no company save Lion's Tooth.
It was a glorious day, a magical day. The air was warm and heavy with the scent of flowers, and the
woods here had a gentle beauty that Sansa had never seen in the north. Prince Joffrey's mount was a
blood bay courser, swift as the wind, and he rode it with reckless abandon, so fast that Sansa was
hard-pressed to keep up on her mare. It was a day for adventures. They explored the caves by the
riverbank, and tracked a shadowcat to its lair, and when they grew hungry, Joffrey found a holdfast by its
smoke and told them to fetch food and wine for their prince and his lady. They dined on trout fresh from
the river, and Sansa drank more wine than she had ever drunk before. "My father only lets us have one
cup, and only at feasts," she confessed to her prince.
"My betrothed can drink as much as she wants," Joffrey said, refilling her cup.
They went more slowly after they had eaten. Joffrey sang for her as
they rode, his voice high and sweet and pure. Sansa was a little dizzy from the wine. "Shouldn't we be
starting back?" she asked.
"Soon," Joffrey said. "The battleground is right up ahead, where the river bends. That was where my
father killed Rhaegar Targaryen, you know. He smashed in his chest, crunch, right through the armor."
Joffrey swung an imaginary warhammer to show her how it was done. "Then my uncle Jaime killed old
Aerys, and my father was king. What's that sound?"
Sansa heard it too, floating through the woods, a kind of wooden clattering, snack snack snack. "I don't
know," she said. It made her nervous, though. "Joffrey, let's go back."
"I want to see what it is." Joffrey turned his horse in the direction of the sounds, and Sansa had no choice
but to follow. The noises grew louder and more distinct, the clack of wood on wood, and as they grew
closer they heard heavy breathing as well, and now and then a grunt.
"Someone's there," Sansa said anxiously. She found herself thinking of Lady, wishing the direwolf was
with her.
"You're safe with me." Joffrey drew his Lion's Tooth from its sheath. The sound of steel on leather made
her tremble. "This way," he said, riding through a stand of trees.
Beyond, in a clearing overlooking the river, they came upon a boy and a girl playing at knights. Their
swords were wooden sticks, broom handles from the look of them, and they were rushing across the
grass, swinging at each other lustily. The boy was years older, a head taller, and much stronger, and he
was pressing the attack. The girl, a scrawny thing in soiled leathers, was dodging and managing to get her
stick in the way of most of the boy's blows, but not all. When she tried to lunge at him, he caught her


stick with his own, swept it aside, and slid his wood down hard on her fingers. She cried out and lost her
weapon.
Prince Joffrey laughed. The boy looked around, wide-eyed and startled, and dropped his stick in the
grass. The girl glared at them, sucking on her knuckles to take the sting out, and Sansa was horrified.
'Arya?" she called out incredulously.
"Go away," Arya shouted back at them, angry tears in her eyes. "What are you doing here? Leave us
alone."
Joffrey glanced from Arya to Sansa and back again. "Your sister?" She nodded, blushing. Joffrey
examined the boy, an ungainly lad with a coarse, freckled face and thick red hair. "And who are you,
boy?" he asked in a commanding tone that took no notice of the fact that the other was a year his senior.
"Mycah," the boy muttered. He recognized the prince and averted his eyes. "M'Iord."
"He's the butcher's boy," Sansa said.
"He's my friend," Arya said sharply. "You leave him alone."
"A butcher's boy who wants to be a knight, is it?" Joffrey swung down from his mount, sword in hand.
"Pick up your sword, butcher's boy," he said, his eyes bright with amusement. "Let us see how good you
are."
Mycah stood there, frozen with fear.
Joffrey walked toward him. "Go on, pick it up. Or do you only fight little girls?"
"She ast me to, m'lord," Mycah said. "She ast me to."
Sansa had only to glance at Arya and see the flush on her sister's face to know the boy was telling the
truth, but Joffrey was in no mood to listen. The wine had made him wild. "Are you going to pick up your
sword?"
Mycah shook his head. "It's only a stick, m'lord. It's not no sword, it's only a stick."
"And you're only a butcher's boy, and no knight." Joffrey lifted Lion's Tooth and laid its point on
Mycah's cheek below the eye, as the butcher's boy stood trembling. "That was my lady's sister you were
hitting, do you know that?" A bright bud of blood blossomed where his sword pressed into Mycah's
flesh, and a slow red line trickled down the boy's cheek.
"Stop it!" Arya screamed. She grabbed up her fallen stick.
Sansa was afraid. "Arya, you stay out of this."
"I won't hurt him . . . much," Prince Joffrey told Arya, never taking his eyes off the butcher's boy.
Arya went for him.


Sansa slid off her mare, but she was too slow. Arya swung with both hands. There was a loud crack as
the wood split against the back of the prince's head, and then everything happened at once before
Sansa's horrified eyes. Joffrey staggered and whirled around, roaring curses. Mycah ran for the trees as
fast as his legs would take him. Arya swung at the prince again, but this time Joffrey caught the blow on
Lion's Tooth and sent her broken stick flying from her hands. The back of his head was all bloody and
his eyes were on fire. Sansa was shrieking, "No, no, stop it, stop it, both of you, you're spoiling it," but no
one was listening. Arya scooped up a rock and hurled it at Joffrey's head. She hit his horse instead, and
the blood bay reared and went galloping off after Mycah. "Stop it, don't, stop it!" Sansa screamed.
Joffrey slashed at Arya with his sword, screaming obscenities, terrible words, filthy words. Arya darted
back, frightened now, but Joffrey followed, hounding
her toward the woods, backing her up against a tree. Sansa didn't know what to do. She watched
helplessly, almost blind from her tears.
Then a grey blur flashed past her, and suddenly Nymeria was there, leaping, jaws closing around
Jofftey's sword arm. The steel fell from his fingers as the wolf knocked him off his feet, and they rolled in
the grass, the wolf snarling and ripping at him, the prince shrieking in pain. "Get it off," he screamed. "Get
it off!"
Arya's voice cracked like a whip. "Nymefia!"
The direwolf let go of Joffrey and moved to Arya's side. The prince lay in the grass, whimpering,
cradling his mangled arm. His shirt was soaked in blood. Arya said, "She didn't hurt you . . . much." She
picked up Lion's Tooth where it had fallen, and stood over him, holding the sword with both hands.
Jofftey made a scared whimpery sound as he looked up at her. "No," he said, "don't hurt me. I'll tell my
mother."
"You leave him alone!" Sansa screamed at her sister.
Arya whirled and heaved the sword into the air, putting her whole body into the throw. The blue steel
flashed in the sun as the sword spun out over the river. It hit the water and vanished with a splash. Joffrey
moaned. Arya ran off to her horse, Nymeria loping at her heels.
After they had gone, Sansa went to Prince Joffrey. His eyes were closed in pain, his breath ragged.
Sansa knelt beside him. "Joffrey," she sobbed. "Oh, look what they did, look what they did. My poor
prince. Don't be afraid. I'll ride to the holdfast and bring help for you." Tenderly she reached out and
brushed back his soft blond hair.
His eyes snapped open and looked at her, and there was nothing but loathing there, nothing but the vilest
contempt. "Then go," he spit at her. "And don't touch me."
EDDARD
They've found her, my lord."
Ned rose quickly. "Our men or Lannister's?"


"T"It was Jory," his steward Vayon Poole replied. "She's not been harmed."
"Thank the gods," Ned said. His men had been searching for Arya for four days now, but the queen's
men had been out hunting as well. "Where is she? Tell Jory to bring her here at once."
"I am sorry, my lord," Poole told him. "The guards on the gate were Lannister men, and they informed
the queen when Jory brought her in. She's being taken directly before the king . . ."
"Damn that woman!" Ned said, striding to the door. "Find Sansa and bring her to the audience chamber.
Her voice may be needed." He descended the tower steps in a red rage. He had led searches himself for
the first three days, and had scarcely slept an hour since Arya had disappeared. This morning he had
been so heartsick and weary he could scarcely stand, but now his fury was on him, filling him with
strength.
Men called out to him as he crossed the castle yard, but Ned ignored them in his haste. He would have
run, but he was still the King's Hand, and a Hand must keep his dignity. He was aware of the eyes that
followed him, of the muttered voices wondering what he would do.
The castle was a modest holding a half day's ride south of the Trident. The royal party had made
themselves the uninvited guests of its lord, Ser Raymun Darry, while the hunt for Arya and the butcher's
boy was conducted on both sides of the river. They were not welcome visitors. Ser Raymun lived under
the king's peace, but his family had fought beneath Rhaegar's dragon banners at the Trident, and his three
older brothers had died there, a truth neither Robert nor Ser Raymun had forgotten. With king's men,
Darry men, Lannister men, and Stark men all crammed into a castle far too small for them, tensions
burned hot and heavy.
The king had appropriated Ser Raymun's audience chamber, and that was where Ned found them. The
room was crowded when he burst in. Too crowded, he thought; left alone, he and Robert might have
been able to settle the matter amicably.
Robert was slumped in Darry's high seat at the far end of the room, his face closed and sullen. Cersei
Lannister and her son stood beside him. The queen had her hand on Joffrey's shoulder. Thick silken
bandages still covered the boy's arm.
Arya stood in the center of the room, alone but for Jory Cassel, every eye upon her. "Arya," Ned called
loudly. He went to her, his boots ringing on the stone floor. When she saw him, she cried out and began
to sob.
Ned went to one knee and took her in his arms. She was shaking. "I'm sorry," she sobbed, "I'm sorry,
I'm sorry."
"I know," he said. She felt so tiny in his arms, nothing but a scrawny little girl. It was hard to see how she
had caused so much trouble. "Are you hurt?"
"No." Her face was dirty, and her tears left pink tracks down her cheeks. "Hungry some. I ate some
berries, but there was nothing else."
"We'll feed you soon enough," Ned promised. He rose to face the king. "What is the meaning of this?"


His eyes swept the room, searching for friendly faces. But for his own men, they were few enough. Ser
Raymun Darry guarded his look well. Lord Renly wore a half smile that might mean anything, and old Ser
Barristan was grave; the rest were Lannister men, and hostile. Their only good fortune was that both
Jaime Lannister and Sandor Clegane were missing, leading searches north of the Trident. "Why was I not
told that my daughter had been found?" Ned demanded, his voice ringing. "Why was she not brought to
me at once?"
He spoke to Robert, but it was Cersei Lannister who answered. "How dare you speak to your king in
that manner!"
At that, the king stirred. "Quiet, woman," he snapped. He straightened
in his seat. "I am sorry, Ned. I never meant to frighten the girl. It seemed best to bring her here and
get the business done with quickly."
"And what business is that?" Ned put ice in his voice.
The queen stepped forward. "You know full well, Stark. This girl of yours attacked my son. Her and her
butcher's boy. That animal of hers tried to tear his arm off."
"That's not true," Arya said loudly. "She just bit him a little. He was hurting Mycah."
"Joff told us what happened," the queen said. "You and the butcher boy beat him with clubs while you
set your wolf on him."
"That's not how it was," Arya said, close to tears again. Ned put a hand on her shoulder.
"Yes it is!" Prince Joffrey insisted. "They all attacked me, and she threw Lion's Tooth in the river!" Ned
noticed that he did not so much as glance at Arya as he spoke.
"Liar!" Arya yelled.
"Shut up!" the prince yelled back.
"Enough!" the king roared, rising from his seat, his voice thick with irritation. Silence fell. He glowered at
Arya through his thick beard. "Now, child, you will tell me what happened. Tell it all, and tell it true. It is
a great crime to lie to a king." Then he looked over at his son. "When she is done, you will have your
turn. Until then, hold your tongue."
As Arya began her story, Ned heard the door open behind him. He glanced back and saw Vayon Poole
enter with Sansa. They stood quietly at the back of the hall as Arya spoke. When she got to the part
where she threw Joffrey's sword into the middle of the Trident, Renly Baratheon began to laugh. The king
bristled. "Ser Barristan, escort my brother from the hall before he chokes."
Lord Renly stifled his laughter. "My brother is too kind. I can find the door myself." He bowed to
Joffrey. "Perchance later you'll tell me how a nine-year-old girl the size of a wet rat managed to disarm
you with a broom handle and throw your sword in the river." As the door swung shut behind him, Ned
heard him say, "Lion's Tooth," and guffaw once more.


Prince Joffrey was pale as he began his very different version of events. When his son was done talking,
the king rose heavily from his seat, looking like a man who wanted to be anywhere but here. "What in all
the seven hells am I supposed to make of this? He says one thing, she says another."
"They were not the only ones present," Ned said. "Sansa, come
here." Ned had heard her version of the story the night Arya had vanished. He knew the truth. "Tell us
what happened."
His eldest daughter stepped forward hesitantly. She was dressed in blue velvets trimmed with white, a
silver chain around her neck. Her thick auburn hair had been brushed until it shone. She blinked at her
sister, then at the young prince. "I don't know," she said tearfully, looking as though she wanted to bolt. "I
don't remember. Everything happened so fast, I didn't see . . ."
"You rotten!" Arya shrieked. She flew at her sister like an arrow, knocking Sansa down to the ground,
pummeling her. "Liar, liar, liar, liar."
"Arya, stop it!" Ned shouted. Jory pulled her off her sister, kicking. Sansa was pale and shaking as Ned
lifted her back to her feet. "Are you hurt?" he asked, but she was staring at Arya, and she did not seem
to hear.
"The girl is as wild as that filthy animal of hers," Cersei Lannister said. "Robert, I want her punished."
"Seven hells," Robert swore. "Cersei, look at her. She's a child. What would you have me do, whip her
through the streets? Damn it, children fight. It's over. No lasting harm was done."
The queen was furious. "Joff will carry those scars for the rest of his life."
Robert Baratheon looked at his eldest son. "So he will. Perhaps they will teach him a lesson. Ned, see
that your daughter is disciplined. I will do the same with my son."
"Gladly, Your Grace," Ned said with vast relief.
Robert started to walk away, but the queen was not done. "And what of the direwolf?" she called after
him. "What of the beast that savaged your son?"
The king stopped, turned back, frowned. "I'd forgotten about the damned wolf."
Ned could see Arya tense in Jory's arms. Jory spoke up quickly. "We found no trace of the direwolf,
Your Grace."
Robert did not look unhappy. "No? So be it."
The queen raised her voice. "A hundred golden dragons to the man who brings me its skin!"
"A costly pelt," Robert grumbled. "I want no part of this, woman. You can damn well buy your furs with
Lannister gold."
The queen regarded him coolly. "I had not thought you so niggardly. The king I'd thought to wed would


have laid a wolfskin across my bed before the sun went down."
Robert's face darkened with anger. "That would be a fine trick, without a wolf."
"We have a wolf," Cersei Lannister said. Her voice was very quiet, but her green eyes shone with
triumph.
It took them all a moment to comprehend her words, but when they did, the king shrugged irritably. "As
you will. Have Ser Ilyn see to it."
"Robert, you cannot mean this," Ned protested.
The king was in no mood for more argument. "Enough, Ned, I will hear no more. A direwolf is a savage
beast. Sooner or later it would have turned on your girl the same way the other did on my son. Get her a
dog, she'll be happier for it."
That was when Sansa finally seemed to comprehend. Her eyes were frightened as they went to her
father. "He doesn't mean Lady, does he?" She saw the truth on his face. "No," she said. "No, not Lady,
Lady didn't bite anybody, she's good . . ."
"Lady wasn't there," Arya shouted angrily. "You leave her alone!"
"Stop them," Sansa pleaded, "don't let them do it, please, please, it wasn't Lady, it was Nymeria, Arya
did it, you can't, it wasn't Lady, don't let them hurt Lady, I'll make her be good, I promise, I promise . . ."
She started to cry.
All Ned could do was take her in his arms and hold her while she wept. He looked across the room at
Robert. His old friend, closer than any brother. "Please, Robert. For the love you bear me. For the love
you bore my sister. Please."
The king looked at them for a long moment, then turned his eyes on his wife. "Damn you, Cersei," he
said with loathing.
Ned stood, gently disengaging himself from Sansa's grasp. All the weariness of the past four days had
returned to him. "Do it yourself then, Robert," he said in a voice cold and sharp as steel. "At least have
the courage to do it yourself."
Robert looked at Ned with flat, dead eyes and left without a word, his footsteps heavy as lead. Silence
filled the hall.
"Where is the direwolf?" Cersei Lannister asked when her husband was gone. Beside her, Prince Joffrey
was smiling.
"The beast is chained up outside the gatehouse, Your Grace," Ser Barristan Selmy answered reluctantly.
"Send for Ilyn Payne."
"No," Ned said. "Jory, take the girls back to their rooms and bring me Ice." The words tasted of bile in
his throat, but he forced them out. "If it must be done, I will do it."


Cersei Lannister regarded him suspiciously. "You, Stark? Is this some trick? Why would you do such a
thing?"
They were all staring at him, but it was Sansa's look that cut. "She is of the north. She deserves better
than a butcher."
He left the room with his eyes burning and his daughter's wails echoing in his ears, and found the direwolf
pup where they chained her. Ned sat beside her for a while. "Lady," he said, tasting the name. He had
never paid much attention to the names the children had picked, but looking at her now, he knew that
Sansa had chosen well. She was the smallest of the litter, the prettiest, the most gentle and trusting. She
looked at him with bright golden eyes, and he ruffled her thick grey fur.
Shortly, Jory brought him Ice.
When it was over, he said, "Choose four men and have them take the body north. Bury her at
Winterfell."
"All that way?" Jory said, astonished.
"All that way," Ned affirmed. "The Lannister woman shall never have this skin."
He was walking back to the tower to give himself up to sleep at last when Sandor Clegane and his riders
came pounding through the castle gate, back from their hunt.
There was something slung over the back of his destrier, a heavy shape wrapped in a bloody cloak. "No
sign of your daughter, Hand," the Hound rasped down, "but the day was not wholly wasted. We got her
little pet." He reached back and shoved the burden off, and it fell with a thump in front of Ned.
Bending, Ned pulled back the cloak, dreading the words he would have to find for Arya, but it was not
Nymeria after all. It was the butcher's boy, Mycah, his body covered in dried blood. He had been cut
almost in half from shoulder to waist by some terrible blow struck from above.
"You rode him down," Ned said.
The Hound's eyes seemed to glitter through the steel of that hideous dog's-head helm. "He ran." He
looked at Ned's face and laughed. "But not very fast."
BRAN
It seemed as though he had been falling for years.
Fly, a voice whispered in the darkness, but Bran did not know 'thow to fly, so all he could do was fall.
Maester Luwin made a little boy of clay, baked him till he was hard and brittle, dressed him in Bran's
clothes, and flung him off a roof. Bran remembered the way he shattered. "But I never fall," he said,
falling.


The ground was so far below him he could barely make it out through the grey mists that whirled around
him, but he could feel how fast he was falling, and he knew what was waiting for him down there. Even in
dreams, you could not fall forever. He would wake up in the instant before he hit the ground, he knew.
You always woke up in the instant before you hit the ground.
And if you don't? the voice asked.
The ground was closer now, still far far away, a thousand miles away, but closer than it had been. It was
cold here in the darkness. There was no sun, no stars, only the ground below coming up to smash him,
and the grey mists, and the whispering voice. He wanted to cry.
Not cry. Fly.
"I can't fly," Bran said. "I can't, I can't
How do you know? Have you ever tried?
The voice was high and thin. Bran looked around to see where it
was coming from. A crow was spiraling down with him, just out of reach, following him as he fell. "Help
me," he said.
I'm trying, the crow replied. Say, got any corn?
Bran reached into his pocket as the darkness spun dizzily around him. When he pulled his hand out,
golden kernels slid from between his fingers into the air. They fell with him.
The crow landed on his hand and began to eat.
"Are you really a crow?" Bran asked.
Are you really falling? the crow asked back.
"It's just a dream," Bran said.
Is it? asked the crow.
"I'll wake up when I hit the ground," Bran told the bird.
You'll die when you hit the ground, the crow said. It went back to eating corn.
Bran looked down. He could see mountains now, their peaks white with snow, and the silver thread of
rivers in dark woods. He closed his eyes and began to cry.
That won't do any good, the crow said. I told you, the answer is flying, not crying. How hard can it be?
I'm doing it. The crow took to the air and flapped around Bran's hand.
"You have wings," Bran pointed out.


Maybe you do too.
Bran felt along his shoulders, groping for feathers.
There are different kinds of wings, the crow said.
Bran was staring at his arms, his legs. He was so skinny, just skin stretched taut over bones. Had he
always been so thin? He tried to remember. A face swam up at him out of the grey mist, shining with
light, golden. "The things I do for love," it said.
Bran screamed.
The crow took to the air, cawing. Not that, it shrieked at him. Forget that, you do not need it now, put it
aside, put it away. It landed on Bran's shoulder, and pecked at him, and the shining golden face was
gone.
Bran was falling faster than ever. The grey mists howled around him as he plunged toward the earth
below. "What are you doing to me?" he asked the crow, tearful.
Teaching you how to fly.
"I can't fly!"
You're flying tight now.
,,Fm falling!"
Every flight begins with a fall, the crow said. Look down.
"I'm afraid . . ."
LOOKDOWN!
Bran looked down, and felt his insides turn to water. The ground was rushing up at him now. The whole
world was spread out below him, a tapestry of white and brown and green. He could see everything so
clearly that for a moment he forgot to be afraid. He could see the whole realm, and everyone in it.
He saw Winterfell as the eagles see it, the tall towers looking squat and stubby from above, the castle
walls just lines in the dirt. He saw Maester Luwin on his balcony, studying the sky through a polished
bronze tube and frowning as he made notes in a book. He saw his brother Robb, taller and stronger than
he remembered him, practicing swordplay in the yard with real steel in his hand. He saw Hodor, the
simple giant from the stables, carrying an anvil to Mikken's forge, hefting it onto his shoulder as easily as
another man might heft a bale of hay. At the heart of the godswood, the great white weirwood brooded
over its reflection in the black pool, its leaves rustling in a chill wind. When it felt Bran watching, it lifted
its eyes from the still waters and stared back at him knowingly.
He looked east, and saw a galley racing across the waters of the Bite. He saw his mother sitting alone in
a cabin, looking at a bloodstained knife on a table in front of her, as the rowers pulled at their oars and


Ser Rodrik leaned across a rail, shaking and heaving. A storm was gathering ahead of them, a vast dark
roaring lashed by lightning, but somehow they could not see it.
He looked south, and saw the great blue-green rush of the Trident. He saw his father pleading with the
king, his face etched with grief. He saw Sansa crying herself to sleep at night, and he saw Arya watching
in silence and holding her secrets hard in her heart. There were shadows all around them. One shadow
was dark as ash, with the terrible face of a hound. Another was armored like the sun, golden and
beautiful. Over them both loomed a giant in armor made of stone, but when he opened his visor, there
was nothing inside but darkness and thick black blood.
He lifted his eyes and saw clear across the narrow sea, to the Free Cities and the green Dothraki sea
and beyond, to Vaes Dothrak under its mountain, to the fabled lands of the Jade Sea, to Asshai by the
Shadow, where dragons stirred beneath the sunrise.
Finally he looked north. He saw the Wall shining like blue crystal, and his bastard brother Jon sleeping
alone in a cold bed, his skin growing pale and hard as the memory of all warmth fled from him. And he
looked past the Wall, past endless forests cloaked in snow, past the frozen shore and the great
blue-white rivers of ice and the dead plains where nothing grew or lived. North and north and north he
looked, to the curtain of light at the end of the world, and then beyond that curtain. He looked deep into
the heart of winter, and then he cried out, afraid, and the heat of his tears burned on his cheeks.
Now you know, the crow whispered as it sat on his shoulder. Now you know why you must live.
"Why?" Bran said, not understanding, falling, falling.
Because winter is coming.
Bran looked at the crow on his shoulder, and the crow looked back. It had three eyes, and the third eye
was full of a terrible knowledge. Bran looked down. There was nothing below him now but snow and
cold and death, a frozen wasteland where jagged blue-white spires of ice waited to embrace him. They
flew up at him like spears. He saw the bones of a thousand other dreamers impaled upon their points. He
was desperately afraid.
"Can a man still be brave if he's afraid?" he heard his own voice saying, small and far away.
And his father's voice replied to him. "That is the only time a man can be brave."
Now, Bran, the crow urged. Choose. Fly or die.
Death reached for him, screaming.
Bran spread his arms and flew.
Wings unseen drank the wind and filled and pulled him upward. The terrible needles of ice receded
below him. The sky opened up above. Bran soared. It was better than climbing. It was better than
anything. The world grew small beneath him.
"I'm flying!" he cried out in delight.


I've noticed, said the three-eyed crow. It took to the air, flapping its wings in his face, slowing him,
blinding him. He faltered in the air as its pinions beat against his cheeks. Its beak stabbed at him fiercely,
and Bran felt a sudden blinding pain in the middle of his forehead, between his eyes.
"What are you doing?" he shrieked.
The crow opened its beak and cawed at him, a shrill scream of fear, and the grey mists shuddered and
swirled around him and ripped away like a veil, and he saw that the crow was really a woman, a serving
woman with long black hair, and he knew her from somewhere, from Winterfell, yes, that was it, he
remembered her now, and then he realized that he was in Winterfell, in a bed- high in some chilly tower
room, and the black-haired woman dropped a basin of water to shatter on the floor and ran down the
steps, shouting, "He's awake, he's awake, he's awake."
Bran touched his forehead, between his eyes. The place where the
crow had pecked him was still burning, but there was nothing there, no blood, no wound. He felt weak
and dizzy. He tried to get out of bed, but nothing happened.
And then there was movement beside the bed, and something landed lightly on his legs. He felt nothing.
A pair of yellow eyes looked into his own, shining like the sun. The window was open and it was cold in
the room, but the warmth that came off the wolf enfolded him like a hot bath. His pup, Bran realized . . .
or was it? He was so big now. He reached out to pet him, his hand trembling like a leaf.
When his brother Robb burst into the room, breathless from his dash up the tower steps, the direwolf
was licking Bran's face. Bran looked up calmly. "His name is Summer," he said.
CATELYN
"We will make King's Landing within the hour."
Catelyn turned away from the rail and forced herself to smile. "Your oarmen have done well by us,
Captain. Each one of them shall have a silver stag, as a token of my gratitude."
Captain Moreo Turnitis favored her with a half bow. "You are far too generous, Lady Stark. The honor
of carrying a great lady like yourself is all the reward they need."
"But they'll take the silver anyway."
Moreo smiled. "As you say." He spoke the Common Tongue fluently, with only the slightest hint of a
Tyroshi accent. He'd been plying the narrow sea for thirty years, he'd told her, as oarman, quartermaster,
and finally captain of his own trading galleys. The Stonn Dancer was his fourth ship, and his fastest, a
two-masted galley of sixty oars.
She had certainly been the fastest of the ships available in White Harbor when Catelyn and Ser Rodrik


Cassel had arrived after their headlong gallop downriver. The Tyroshi were notorious for their avarice,
and Ser Rodrik had argued for hiring a fishing sloop out of the Three Sisters, but Catelyn had insisted on
the galley. It was good that she had. The winds had been against them much of the voyage, and without
the galley's oars they'd still be beating their way past the
Fingers, instead of skimming toward King's Landing and journey's end.
So close, she thought. Beneath the linen bandages, her fingers still throbbed where the dagger had bitten.
The pain was her scourge, Catelyn felt, lest she forget. She could not bend the last two fingers on her left
hand, and the others would never again be dexterous. Yet that was a small enough price to pay for
Bran's life.
Ser Rodrik chose that moment to appear on deck. "My good friend," said Moreo through his forked
green beard. The Tyroshi loved bright colors, even in their facial hair. "It is so fine to see you looking
better."
"Yes," Ser Rodrik agreed. "I haven't wanted to die for almost two days now." He bowed to Catelyn.
"My lady."
He was looking better. A shade thinner than he had been when they set out from White Harbor, but
almost himself again. The strong winds in the Bite and the roughness of the narrow sea had not agreed
with him, and he'd almost gone over the side when the storm seized them unexpectedly off Dragonstone,
yet somehow he had clung to a rope until three of Moreo's men could rescue him and carry him safely
below decks.
"The captain was just telling me that our voyage is almost at an end," she said.
Ser Rodrik managed a wry smile. "So soon?" He looked odd without his great white side whiskers;
smaller somehow, less fierce, and ten years older. Yet back on the Bite it had seemed prudent to submit
to a crewman's razor, after his whiskers had become hopelessly befouled for the third time while he
leaned over the rail and retched into the swirling winds.
"I will leave you to discuss your business," Captain Moreo said. He bowed and took his leave of them.
The galley skimmed the water like a dragonfly, her oars rising and falling in perfect time. Ser Rodrik held
the rail and looked out over the passing shore. "I have not been the most valiant of protectors."
Catelyn touched his arm. "We are here, Ser Rodrik, and safely. That is all that truly matters." Her hand
groped beneath her cloak, her fingers stiff and fumbling. The dagger was still at her side. She found she
had to touch it now and then, to reassure herself. "Now we must reach the king's master-at-arms, and
pray that he can be trusted."
"Ser Aron Santagar is a vain man, but an honest one." Ser Rodrik's hand went to his face to stroke his
whiskers and discovered once again that they were gone. He looked nonplussed. "He may know the
blade,
yes ... but, my lady, the moment we go ashore we are at risk. And there are those at court who will


know you on sight."
Catelyn's mouth grew tight. "Littlefinger," she murmured. His face swam up before her; a boy's face,
though he was a boy no longer. His father had died several years before, so he was Lord Baelish now,
yet still they called him Littlefinger. Her brother Edmure had given him that name, long ago at Riverrun.
His family's modest holdings were on the smallest of the Fingers, and Petyr had been slight and short for
his age.
Ser Rodrik cleared his throat. "Lord Baelish once, ah His
thought trailed off uncertainly in search of the polite word.
Catelyn was past delicacy. "He was my father's ward. We grew up together in Riverrun. I thought of him
as a brother, but his feelings for me were . . . more than brotherly. When it was announced that I was to
wed Brandon Stark, Petyr challenged for the right to my hand. It was madness. Brandon was twenty,
Petyr scarcely fifteen. I had to beg Brandon to spare Petyr's life. He let him off with a scar. Afterward my
father sent him away. I have not seen him since." She lifted her face to the spray, as if the brisk wind
could blow the memories away. "He wrote to me at Riverrun after Brandon was killed, but I burned the
letter unread. By then I knew that Ned would marry me in his brother's place."
Ser Rodrik's fingers fumbled once again for nonexistent whiskers. "Littlefinger sits on the small council
now."
"I knew he would rise high," Catelyn said. "He was always clever, even as a boy, but it is one thing to be
clever and another to be wise. I wonder what the years have done to him."
High overhead, the far-eyes sang out from the rigging. Captain Moreo came scrambling across the deck,
giving orders, and all around them the Stonn Dancer burst into frenetic activity as King's Landing slid into
view atop its three high hills.
Three hundred years ago, Catelyn knew, those heights had been covered with forest, and only a handful
of fisherfolk had lived on the north shore of the Blackwater Rush where that deep, swift river flowed into
the sea. Then Aegon the Conqueror had sailed from Dragonstone. It was here that his army had put
ashore, and there on the highest hill that he built his first crude redoubt of wood and earth.
Now the city covered the shore as far as Catelyn could see; manses and arbors and granaries, brick
storehouses and timbered inns and merchant's stalls, taverns and graveyards and brothels, all piled one
on another. She could hear the clamor of the fish market even at this distance. Between the buildings
were broad roads lined with trees,
wandering crookback streets, and alleys so narrow that two men could not walk abreast. Visenya's hill
was crowned by the Great Sept of Baelor with its seven crystal towers. Across the city on the hill of
Rhaenys stood the blackened walls of the Dragonpit, its huge dome collapsing into ruin, its bronze doors
closed now for a century. The Street of the Sisters ran between them, straight as an arrow. The city walls
rose in the distance, high and strong.
A hundred quays lined the waterfront, and the harbor was crowded with ships. Deepwater fishing boats
and river runners came and went, ferrymen poled back and forth across the Blackwater Rush, trading
galleys unloaded goods from Braavos and Pentos and Lys. Catelyn sp~ied the queen's ornate barge, tied


up beside a fat-bellied whaler from the Port of Ibben, its hull black with tar, while upriver a dozen lean
golden warships rested in their cribs, sails furled and cruel iron rams lapping at the water.
And above it all, frowning down from Aegon's high hill, was the Red Keep; seven huge drum-towers
crowned with iron ramparts, an immense grim barbican, vaulted halls and covered bridges, barracks and
dungeons and granaries, massive curtain walls studded with archers' nests, all fashioned of pale red stone.
Aegon the Conqueror had commanded it built. His son Maegor the Cruel had seen it completed.
Afterward he had taken the heads of every stonemason, woodworker, and builder who had labored on
it. Only the blood of the dragon would ever know the secrets of the fortress the Dragonlords had built, he
vowed.
Yet now the banners that flew from its battlements were golden, not black, and where the three-headed
dragon had once breathed fire, now pranced the crowned stag of House Baratheon.
A high-masted swan ship from the Summer Isles was beating out from port, its white sails huge with
wind. The Stonn Dancer moved past it, pulling steadily for shore.
"My lady," Ser Rodrik said, "I have thought on how best to proceed while I lay abed. You must not
enter the castle. I will go in your stead and bring Ser Aron to you in some safe place."
She studied the old knight as the galley drew near to a pier. Moreo was shouting in the vulgar Valyrian
of the Free Cities. "You would be as much at risk as I would."
Ser Rodrik smiled. "I think not. I looked at my reflection in the water earlier and scarcely recognized
myself. My mother was the last person to see me without whiskers, and she is forty years dead. I believe
I am safe enough, my lady."
Moreo bellowed a command. As one, sixty oars lifted from the
river, then reversed and backed water. The galley slowed. Another shout. The oars slid back inside the
hull. As they thumped against the dock, Tyroshi seamen leapt down to tie up. Moreo came bustling up,
all smiles. "King's Landing, my lady, as you did command, and never has a ship made a swifter or surer
passage. Will you be needing assistance to carry your things to the castle?"
"We shall not be going to the castle. Perhaps you can suggest an inn, someplace clean and comfortable
and not too far from the river."
The Tyroshi fingered his forked green beard. "Just so. I know of several establishments that might suit
your needs. Yet first, if I may be so bold, there is the matter of the second half of the payment we agreed
upon. And of course the extra silver you were so kind as to promise. Sixty stags, I believe it was."
"For the oarmen," Catelyn reminded him.
"Oh, of a certainty," said Moreo. "Though perhaps I should hold it for them until we return to Tyrosh.
For the sake of their wives and children. If you give them the silver here, my lady, they will dice it away
or spend it all for a night's pleasure."
"There are worse things to spend money on," Ser Rodrik put in. "Winter is coming."


"A man must make his own choices," Catelyn said. "They earned the silver. How they spend it is no
concern of mine."
"As you say, my lady," Moreo replied, bowing and smiling.
Just to be sure, Catelyn paid the oarmen herself, a stag to each man, and a copper to the two men who
carried their chests halfway up Visenya's hill to the inn that Moreo had suggested. It was a rambling old
place on Eel Alley. The woman who owned it was a sour crone with a wandering eye who looked them
over suspiciously and bit the coin that Catelyn offered her to make sure it was real. Her rooms were large
and airy, though, and Moreo swore that her fish stew was the most savory in all the Seven Kingdoms.
Best of all, she had no interest in their names.
"I think it best if you stay away from the common room," Ser Rodrik said, after they had settled in.
"Even in a place like this, one never knows who may be watching." He wore ringmail, dagger, and
longsword under a dark cloak with a hood he could pull up over his head. "I will be back before nightfall,
with Ser Aron," he promised. "Rest now, my lady."
Catelyn was tired. The voyage had been long and fatiguing, and she was no longer as young as she had
been. Her windows opened on the alley and rooftops, with a view of the Blackwater beyond. She
watched Ser Rodrik set off, striding briskly through the busy streets until he was
lost in the crowds, then decided to take his advice. The bedding was stuffed with straw instead of
feathers, but she had no trouble falling asleep.
She woke to a pounding on her door.
Catelyn sat up sharply. Outside the window, the rooftops of King's Landing were red in the light of the
setting sun. She had slept longer than she intended. A fist hammered at her door again, and a voice called
out, "Open, in the name of the king."
"A moment," she called out. She wrapped herself in her cloak. The dagger was on the bedside table.
She snatched it up before she unlatched the heavy wooden door.
The men who pushed into the room wore the black ringmail and golden cloaks of the City Watch. Their
leader smiled at the dagger in her hand and said, "No need for that, m1ady. We're to escort you to the
castle."
"By whose authority?" she said.
He showed her a ribbon. Catelyn felt her breath catch in her throat. The seal was a mockingbird, in grey
wax. "Petyr," she said. So soon. Something must have happened to Ser Rodrik. She looked at the head
guardsman. "Do you know who I am?"
"No, m'lady," he said. "M'lord Littlefinger said only to bring you to him, and see that you were not
mistreated."
Catelyn nodded. "You may wait outside while I dress."
She bathed her hands in the basin and wrapped them in clean linen. Her fingers were thick and awkward


as she struggled to lace up her bodice and knot a drab brown cloak about her neck. How could
Littlefinger have known she was here? Ser Rodrik would never have told him. Old he might be, but he
was stubborn, and loyal to a fault. Were they too late, had the Lannisters reached King's Landing before
her? No, if that were true, Ned would be here too, and surely he would have come to her. How . . . ?
Then she thought, Moreo. The Tyroshi knew who they were and where they were, damn him. She
hoped he'd gotten a good price for the information.
They had brought a horse for her. The lamps were being lit along the streets as they set out, and Catelyn
felt the eyes of the city on her as she rode, surrounded by the guard in their golden cloaks. When they
reached the Red Keep, the portcullis was down and the great gates sealed for the night, but the castle
windows were alive with flickering lights. The guardsmen left their mounts outside the walls and escorted
her through a narrow postern door, then up endless steps to a tower.
He was alone in the room, seated at a heavy wooden table, an oil
lamp beside him as he wrote. When they ushered her inside, he set down his pen and looked at her.
"Cat," he said quietly.
"Why have I been brought here in this fashion?"
He rose and gestured brusquely to the guards. "Leave us." The men departed. "You were not
mistreated, I trust," he said after they had gone. "I gave firm instructions." He noticed her bandages.
"Your hands . . ."
Catelyn ignored the implied question. "I am not accustomed to being summoned like a serving wench,"
she said icily. "As a boy, you still knew the meaning of courtesy."
"I've angered you, my lady. That was never my intent." He looked contrite. The look brought back vivid
memories for Catelyn. He had been a sly child, but after his mischiefs he always looked contrite; it was a
gift he had. The years had not changed him much. Petyr had been a small boy, and he had grown into a
small man, an inch or two shorter than Catelyn, slender and quick, with the sharp features she
remembered and the same laughing grey-green eyes. He had a little pointed chin beard now, and threads
of silver in his dark hair, though he was still shy of thirty. They went well with the silver mockingbird that
fastened his cloak. Even as a child, he had always loved his silver.
"How did you know I was in the city?" she asked him.
"Lord Varys knows all," Petyr said with a sly smile. "He will be joining us shortly, but I wanted to see
you alone first. It has been too long, Cat. How many years?"
Catelyn ignored his familiarity. There were more important questions. "So it was the King's Spider who
found me."
Littlefinger winced. "You don't want to call him that. He's very sensitive. Comes of being an eunuch, I
imagine. Nothing happens in this city without Varys knowing. Oftimes he knows about it before it
happens. He has informants everywhere. His little birds, he calls them. One of his little birds heard about
your visit. Thankfully, Varys came to me first."


"Why you?"
He shrugged. "Why not me? I am master of coin, the king's own councillor. Selmy and Lord Renly rode
north to meet Robert, and Lord Stannis is gone to Dragonstone, leaving only Maester Pycelle and me. I
was the obvious choice. I was ever a friend to your sister Lysa, Varys knows that."
"Does Varys know about
"Lord Varys knows everything . . . except why you are here." He lifted an eyebrow. "Why are you
here?"
"A wife is allowed to yearn for her husband, and if a mother needs her daughters close, who can tell her
no?"
Littlefinger laughed. "Oh, very good, my lady, but please don't expect me to believe that. I know you too
well. What were the Tully words again?"
Her throat was dry. "Family, Duty, Honor, " she recited stiffly. He did know her too well.
"Family, Duty, Honor," he echoed. "All of which required you to remain in Winterfell, where our Hand
left you. No, my lady, something has happened. This sudden trip of yours bespeaks a certain urgency. I
beg of you, let me help. Old sweet friends should never hesitate to rely upon each other." There was a
soft knock on the door. "Enter," Littlefinger called out.
The man who stepped through the door was plump, perfumed, powdered, and as hairless as an egg. He
wore a vest of woven gold thread over a loose gown of purple silk, and on his feet were pointed slippers
of soft velvet. "Lady Stark," he said, taking her hand in both of his, "to see you again after so many years
is such a joy." His flesh was soft and moist, and his breath smelled of lilacs. "Oh, your poor hands. Have
you burned yourself, sweet lady? The fingers are so delicate . . . Our good Maester Pycelle makes a
marvelous salve, shall I send for a jar?"
Catelyn slid her fingers from his grasp. "I thank you, my lord, but my own Maester Luwin has already
seen to my hurts."
Varys bobbed his head. "I was grievous sad to hear about your son. And him so young. The gods are
cruel."
"On that we agree, Lord Varys," she said. The title was but a courtesy due him as a council member;
Varys was lord of nothing but the spiderweb, the master of none but his whisperers.
The eunuch spread his soft hands. "On more than that, I hope, sweet lady. I have great esteem for your
husband, our new Hand, and I know we do both love King Robert."
"Yes," she was forced to say. "For a certainty."
"Never has a king been so beloved as our Robert," quipped Littlefinger. He smiled slyly. "At least in
Lord Varys's hearing."
"Good lady," Varys said with great solicitude. "There are men in the Free Cities with wondrous healing


powers. Say only the word, and I will send for one for your dear Bran."
"Maester Luwin is doing all that can be done for Bran," she told him. She would not speak of Bran, not
here, not with these men. She trusted Littlefinger only a little, and Varys not at all. She would not let
them see her grief. "Lord Baelish tells me that I have you to thank for bringing me here."
Varys giggled like a little girl. "Oh, yes. I suppose I am guilty. I hope you forgive me, kind lady." He
eased himself down into a seat and put his hands together. "I wonder if we might trouble you to show us
the dagger?"
Catelyn Stark stared at the eunuch in stunned disbelief. He was a spider, she thought wildly, an
enchanter or worse. He knew things no one could possibly know, unless "What have you done to Ser
Rodrik?" she demanded.
Littlefinger was lost. "I feel rather like the knight who arrives at the battle without his lance. What dagger
are we talking about? Who is Ser Rodrik?"
"Ser Rodrik Cassel is master-at-arms at Winterfell," Varys informed him. "I assure you, Lady Stark,
nothing at all has been done to the good knight. He did call here early this afternoon. He visited with Ser
Aron Santagar in the armory, and they talked of a certain dagger. About sunset, they left the castle
together and walked to that dreadful hovel where you were staying. They are still there, drinking in the
common room, waiting for your return. Ser Rodrik was very distressed to find you gone."
"How could you know all that?"
"The whisperings of little birds," Varys said, smiling. "I know things, sweet lady. That is the nature of my
service." He shrugged. "You do have the dagger with you, yes?"
Catelyn pulled it out from beneath her cloak and threw it down on the table in front of him. "Here.
Perhaps your little birds will whisper the name of the man it belongs to."
Varys lifted the knife with exaggerated delicacy and ran a thumb along its edge. Blood welled, and he let
out a squeal and dropped the dagger back on the table.
"Careful," Catelyn told him, "it's sharp."
"Nothing holds an edge like Valyrian steel," Littlefinger said as Varys sucked at his bleeding thumb and
looked at Catelyn with sullen admonition. Littlefinger hefted the knife lightly in his hand, testing the grip.
He flipped it in the air, caught it again with his other hand. "Such sweet balance. You want to find the
owner, is that the reason for this visit? You have no need of Ser Aron for that, my lady. You should have
come to me."
"And if I had," she said, "what would you have told me?"
"I would have told you that there was only one knife like this at King's Landing." He grasped the blade
between thumb and forefinger,


drew it back over his shoulder, and threw it across the room with a practiced flick of his wrist. It struck
the door and buried itself deep in the oak, quivering. "It's mine."
"Yours?" It made no sense. Petyr had not been at Winterfell.
"Until the tourney on Prince Joffrey's name day," he said, crossing the room to wrench the dagger from
the wood. "I backed Ser Jaime in the jousting, along with half the court." Petyr's sheepish grin made him
look half a boy again. "When Loras Tyrell unhorsed him, many of us became a trifle poorer. Ser Jaime
lost a hundred golden dragons, the queen lost an emerald pendant, and I lost my knife. Her Grace got the
emerald back, but the winner kept the rest."
"Who?" Catelyn demanded, her mouth dry with fear. Her fingers ached with remembered pain.
"The Imp," said Littlefinger as Lord Varys watched her face. "Tyrion Lannister."
JON
The courtyard rang to the song of swords.
Under black wool, boiled leather, and mail, sweat trickled icily down Jon's chest as he pressed the
attack. Grenn stumbled backward, defending himself clumsily. When he raised his sword, Jon went
underneath it with a sweeping blow that crunched against the back of the other boy's leg and sent him
staggering. Grenn's downcut was answered by an overhand that dented his helm. When he tried a
sideswing, Jon swept aside his blade and slammed a mailed forearm into his chest. Grenn lost his footing
and sat down hard in the snow. Jon knocked his sword from his fingers with a slash to his wrist that
brought a cry of pain.
"Enough!" Ser Alliser Thorne had a voice with an edge like Valyrian steel.
Grenn cradled his hand. "The bastard broke my wrist."
"The bastard hamstrung you, opened your empty skull, and cut off your hand. Or would have, if these
blades had an edge. It's fortunate for you that the Watch needs stableboys as well as rangers." Ser Alliser
gestured at Jeren and Toad. "Get the Aurochs on his feet, he has funeral arrangements to make."
Jon took off his helm as the other boys were pulling Grenn to his feet. The frosty morning air felt good on
his face. He leaned on his
sword, drew a deep breath, and allowed himself a moment to savor the victory.
"That is a longsword, not an old man's cane," Ser Alliser said sharply. "Are your legs hurting, Lord
Snow?"
Jon hated that name, a mockery that Ser Alliser had hung on him the first day he came to practice. The
boys had picked it up, and now he heard it everywhere. He slid the longsword back into its scabbard.
"No," he replied.


Thorne strode toward him, crisp black leathers whispering faintly as he moved. He was a compact man
of fifty years, spare and hard, with grey in his black hair and eyes like chips of onyx. "The truth now," he
commanded.
"I'm tired," Jon admitted. His arm burned from the weight of the longsword, and he was starting to feel
his bruises now that the fight was done.
"What you are is weak."
"I won."
"No. The Aurochs lost."
One of the other boys sniggered. Jon knew better than to reply. He had beaten everyone that Ser Alliser
had sent against him, yet it gained him nothing. The master-at-arms served up only derision. Thorne hated
him, Jon had decided; of course, he hated the other boys even worse.
"That will be all," Thorne told them. "I can only stomach so much ineptitude in any one day. If the Others
ever come for us, I pray they have archers, because you lot are fit for nothing more than arrow fodder."
Jon followed the rest back to the armory, walking alone. He often walked alone here. There were
almost twenty in the group he trained with, yet not one he could call a friend. Most were two or three
years his senior, yet not one was half the fighter Robb had been at fourteen. Dareon was quick but afraid
of being hit. Pyp used his sword like a dagger, Jeren was weak as a girl, Grenn slow and clumsy.
Halder's blows were brutally hard but he ran right into your attacks. The more time he spent with them,
the more Jon despised them.
Inside, Jon hung sword and scabbard from a hook in the stone wall, ignoring the others around him.
Methodically, he began to strip off his mail, leather, and sweat-soaked woolens. Chunks of coal burned
in iron braziers at either end of the long room, but Jon found himself shivering. The chill was always with
him here. In a few years he would forget what it felt like to be warm.
The weariness came on him suddenly, as he donned the roughspun
blacks that were their everyday wear. He sat on a bench, his fingers fumbling with the fastenings on his
cloak. So cold, he thought, remembering the warm halls of Winterfell, where the hot waters ran through
the walls like blood through a man's body. There was scant warmth to be found in Castle Black; the
walls were cold here, and the people colder.
No one had told him the Night's Watch would be like this; no one except Tyrion Lannister. The dwarf
had given him the truth on the road north, but by then it had been too late. Jon wondered if his father had
known what the Wall would be like. He must have, he thought; that only made it hurt the worse.
Even his uncle had abandoned him in this cold place at the end of the world. Up here, the genial Benjen
Stark he had known became a different person. He was First Ranger, and he spent his days and nights
with Lord Commander Mormont and Maester Aemon and the other high officers, while Jon was given
over to the less than tender charge of Ser Alliser Thorne.


Three days after their arrival, Jon had heard that Benjen Stark was to lead a half-dozen men on a
ranging into the haunted forest. That night he sought out his uncle in the great timbered common hall and
pleaded to go with him. Benjen refused him curtly. "This is not Winterfell," he told him as he cut his meat
with fork and dagger. "On the Wall, a man gets only what he earns. You're no ranger, Jon, only a green
boy with the smell of summer still on you."
Stupidly, Jon argued. "I'll be fifteen on my name day," he said. "Almost a man grown."
Benjen Stark frowned. "A boy you are, and a boy you'll remain until Ser Alliser says you are fit to be a
man of the Night's Watch. If you thought your Stark blood would win you easy favors, you were wrong.
We put aside our old families when we swear our vows. Your father will always have a place in my
heart, but these are my brothers now." He gestured with his dagger at the men around them, all the hard
cold men in black.
Jon rose at dawn the next day to watch his uncle leave. One of his rangers, a big ugly man, sang a
bawdy song as he saddled his garron, his breath steaming in the cold morning air. Ben Stark smiled at
that, but he had no smile for his nephew. "How often must I tell you no, Jon? We'll speak when I return."
As he watched his uncle lead his horse into the tunnel, Jon had remembered the things that Tyrion
Lannister told him on the kingsroad, and in his mind's eye he saw Ben Stark lying dead, his blood red on
the snow. The thought made him sick. What was he becoming?
Afterward he sought out Ghost in the loneliness of his cell, and buried his face in his thick white fur.
If he must be alone, he would make solitude his armor. Castle Black had no godswood, only a small
sept and a drunken septon, but Jon could not find it in him to pray to any gods, old or new. If they were
real, he thought, they were as cruel and implacable as winter.
He missed his true brothers: little Rickon, bright eyes shining as he begged for a sweet; Robb, his rival
and best friend and constant companion; Bran, stubborn and curious, always wanting to follow and join
in whatever Jon and Robb were doing. He missed the girls too, even Sansa, who never called him
anything but "my half brother" since she was old enough to understand what bastard meant. And Arya . .
. he missed her even more than Robb, skinny little thing that she was, all scraped knees and tangled hair
and torn clothes, so fierce and willful. Arya never seemed to fit, no more than he had . . . yet she could
always make Jon smile. He would give anything to be with her now, to muss up her hair once more and
watch her make a face, to hear her finish a sentence with him.
"You broke my wrist, bastard boy."
Jon lifted his eyes at the sullen voice. Grenn loomed over him, thick of neck and red of face, with three
of his friends behind him. He knew Todder, a short ugly boy with an unpleasant voice. The recruits all
called him Toad. The other two were the ones Yoren had brought north with them, Jon remembered,
rapers taken down in the Fingers. He'd forgotten their names. He hardly ever spoke ,to them, if he could
help it. They were brutes and bullies, without a thimble of honor between them.
Jon stood up. "I'll break the other one for you if you ask nicely." Grenn was sixteen and a head taller
than Jon. All four of them were bigger than he was, but they did not scare him. He'd beaten every one of
them in the yard.


"Maybe we'll break you," one of the rapers said.
"Try." Jon reached back for his sword, but one of them grabbed his arm and twisted it behind his back.
"You make us look bad," complained Toad.
"You looked bad before I ever met you," Jon told him. The boy who had his arm jerked upward on him,
hard. Pain lanced through him, but Jon would not cry out.
Toad stepped close. "The little lordling has a mouth on him," he said. He had pig eyes, small and shiny.
"Is that your mommy's mouth, bastard? What was she, some whore? Tell us her name. Maybe I had her
a time or two." He laughed.
Jon twisted like an eel and slammed a heel down across the instep of the boy holding him. There was a
sudden cry of pain, and he was free. He flew at Toad, knocked him backward over a bench, and landed
on his chest with both hands on his throat, slamming his head against the packed earth.
The two from the Fingers pulled him off, throwing him roughly to the ground. Grenn began to kick at
him. Jon was rolling away from the blows when a booming voice cut through the gloom of the armory.
"STOP THIS! NOW!"
Jon pulled himself to his feet. Donal Noye stood glowering at them. "The yard is for fighting," the
armorer said. "Keep your quarrels out of my armory, or I'll make them my quarrels. You won't like that."
Toad sat on the floor, gingerly feeling the back of his head. His fingers came away bloody. "He tried to
kill me."
" 'S true. I saw it," one of the rapers put in.
"He broke my wrist," Grenn said again, holding it out to Noye for inspection.
The armorer gave the offered wrist the briefest of glances. "A bruise. Perhaps a sprain. Maestor Aemon
will give you a salve. Go with him, Todder, that head wants looking after. The rest of you, return to your
cells. Not you, Snow. You stay."
Jon sat heavily on the long wooden bench as the others left, oblivious to the looks they gave him, the
silent promises of future retribution. His arm was throbbing.
"The Watch has need of every man it can get," Donal Noye said when they were alone. "Even men like
Toad. You won't win any honors killing him."
Jon's anger flared. "He said my mother was-"
11
-a whore. I heard him. What of it?"
"Lord Eddard Stark was not a man to sleep with whores," Jon said icily. "His honor-"


"-did not prevent him from fathering a bastard. Did it?"
Jon was cold with rage. "Can I go?"
"You go when I tell you to go."
Jon stared sullenly at the smoke rising from the brazier, until Noye took him under the chin, thick fingers
twisting his head around. "Look at me when I'm talking to you, boy."
Jon looked. The armorer had a chest like a keg of ale and a gut to match. His nose was flat and broad,
and he always seemed in need of a shave. The left sleeve of his black wool tunic was fastened at the
shoulder with a silver pin in the shape of a longsword. "Words won't make your mother a whore. She
was what she was, and nothing Toad
says can change that. You know, we have men on the Wall whose mothers were whores."
Not my mother, Jon thought stubbornly. He knew nothing of his mother; Eddard Stark would not talk of
her. Yet he dreamed of her at times, so often that he could almost see her face. In his dreams, she was
beautiful, and highborn, and her eyes were kind.
"You think you had it hard, being a high lord's bastard?" the armorer went on. "That boy Jeren is a
septon's get, and Cotter Pyke is the baseborn son of a tavern wench. Now he commands Eastwatch by
the Sea."
"I don't care," Jon said. "I don't care about them and I don't care about you or Thorne or Benjen Stark
or any of it. I hate it here. It's too . . . it's cold."
"Yes. Cold and hard and mean, that's the Wall, and the men who walk it. Not like the stories your wet
nurse told you. Well, piss on the stories and piss on your wet nurse. This is the way it is, and you're here
for life, same as the rest of us."
"Life," Jon repeated bitterly. The armorer could talk about life. He'd had one. He'd only taken the black
after he'd lost an arm at the siege of Storm's End. Before that he'd smithed for Stannis Baratheon, the
king's brother. He'd seen the Seven Kingdoms from one end to the other; he'd feasted and wenched and
fought in a hundred battles. They said it was Donal Noye who'd forged King Robert's warhammer, the
one that crushed the life from Rhaegar Targaryen on the Trident. He'd done all the things that Jon would
never do, and then when he was old, well past thirty, he'd taken a glancing blow from an axe and the
wound had festered until the whole arm had to come off. Only then, crippled, had Donal Noye come to
the Wall, when his life was all but over.
"Yes, life," Noye said. "A long life or a short one, it's up to you, Snow. The road you're walking, one of
your brothers will slit your throat for you one night."
"They're not my brothers," Jon snapped. "They hate me because I'm better than they are."
"No. They hate you because you act like you're better than they are. They look at you and see a
castle-bred bastard who thinks he's a lordling." The armorer leaned close. "You're no lordling.
Remember that. You're a Snow, not a Stark. You're a bastard and a bully."


"A bully?" Jon almost choked on the word. The accusation was so unjust it took his breath away. "They
were the ones who came after me. Four of them."
"Four that you've humiliated in the yard. Four who are probably afraid of you. I've watched you fight.
It's not training with you. Put a
good edge on your sword, and they'd be dead meat; you know it, I know it, they know it. You leave
them nothing. You shame them. Does that make you proud?"
Jon hesitated. He did feel proud when he won. Why shouldn't he? But the armorer was taking that away
too, making it sound as if he were doing something wrong. "They're all older than me," he said
defensively.
"Older and bigger and stronger, that's the truth. I'll wager your master-at-arms taught you how to fight
bigger men at Winterfell, though. Who was he, some old knight?"
"Ser Rodrik Cassel," Jon said warily. There was a trap here. He felt it closing around him.
Donal Noye leaned forward, into Jon's face. "Now think on this, boy. None of these others have ever
had a master-at-arms until Ser Alliser. Their fathers were farmers and wagonmen and poachers, smiths
and miners and oars on a trading galley. What they know of fighting they learned between decks, in the
alleys of Oldtown and Lannisport, in wayside brothels and taverns on the kingsroad. They may have
clacked a few sticks together before they came here, but I promise you, not one in twenty was ever rich
enough to own a real sword." His look was grim. "So how do you like the taste of your victories now,
Lord Snow?"
"Don't call me that!" Jon said sharply, but the force had gone out of his anger. Suddenly he felt ashamed
and guilty. "I never . . . I didn't think . . ."
"Best you start thinking," Noye warned him. "That, or sleep with a dagger by your bed. Now go."
By the time Jon left the armory, it was almost midday. The sun had broken through the clouds. He
turned his back on it and lifted his eyes to the Wall, blazing blue and crystalline in the sunlight. Even after
all these weeks, the sight of it still gave him the shivers. Centuries of windblown dirt had pocked and
scoured it, covering it like a film, and it often seemed a pale grey, the color of an overcast sky . . . but
when the sun caught it fair on a bright day, it shone, alive with light, a colossal blue-white cliff that filled up
half the sky.
The largest structure ever built by the hands of man, Benjen Stark had told Jon on the kingsroad when
they had first caught sight of the Wall in the distance. "And beyond a doubt the most useless," Tyrion
Lannister had added with a grin, but even the Imp grew silent as they rode closer. You could see it from
miles off, a pale blue line across the northern horizon, stretching away to the east and west and vanishing
in
the far distance, immense and unbroken. This is the end of the world, it seemed to say.
When they finally spied Castle Black, its timbered keeps and stone towers looked like nothing more than


a handful of toy blocks scattered on the snow, beneath the vast wall of ice. The ancient stronghold of the
black brothers was no Winterfell, no true castle at all. Lacking walls, it could not be defended, not from
the south, or east, or west; but it was only the north that concerned the Night's Watch, and to the north
loomed the Wall. Almost seven hundred feet high it stood, three times the height of the tallest tower in the
stronghold it sheltered. His uncle said the top was wide enough for a dozen armored knights to ride
abreast. The gaunt outlines of huge catapults and monstrous wooden cranes stood sentry up there, like
the skeletons of great birds, and among them walked men in black as small as ants.
As he stood outside the armory looking up, Jon felt almost as overwhelmed as he had that day on the
kingsroad, when he'd seen it for the first time. The Wall was like that. Sometimes he could almost forget
that it was there, the way you forgot about the sky or the earth underfoot, but there were other times
when it seemed as if there was nothing else in the world. It was older than the Seven Kingdoms, and
when he stood beneath it and looked up, it made Jon dizzy. He could feel the great weight of all that ice
pressing down on him, as if it were about to topple, and somehow Jon knew that if it fell, the world fell
with it.
"Makes you wonder what lies beyond," a familiar voice said.
Jon looked around. "Lannister. I didn't see-I mean, I thought I was alone."
Tyrion Lannister was bundled in furs so thickly he looked like a very small bear. "There's much to be
said for taking people unawares. You never know what you might learn."
"You won't learn anything from me," Jon told him. He had seen little of the dwarf since their journey
ended. As the queen's own brother, Tyrion Lannister had been an honored guest of the Night's Watch.
The Lord Commander had given him rooms in the King's Tower-so-called, though no king had visited it
for a hundred yearsand Lannister dined at Mormont's own table and spent his days riding the Wall and
his nights dicing and drinking with Ser Alliser and Bowen Marsh and the other high officers.
"Oh, I learn things everywhere I go." The little man gestured up at the Wall with a gnarled black walking
stick. "As I was saying . . . why is it that when one man builds a wall, the next man immediately needs to
know what's on the other side?" He cocked his head and looked at
Jon with his curious mismatched eyes. "You do want to know what's on the other side, don't you?"
"It's nothing special," Jon said. He wanted to ride with Benjen Stark on his rangings, deep into the
mysteries of the haunted forest, wanted to fight Mance Rayder's wildlings and ward the realm against the
Others, but it was better not to speak of the things you wanted. "The rangers say it's just woods and
mountains and frozen lakes, with lots of snow and ice."
"And the grumkins and the snarks," Tyrion said. "Let us not forget them, Lord Snow, or else what's that
big thing for?"
"Don't call me Lord Snow."
The dwarf lifted an eyebrow. "Would you rather be called the Imp? Let them see that their words can
cut you, and you'll never be free of the mockery. If they want to give you a name, take it, make it your
own. Then they can't hurt you with it anymore." He gestured with his stick. "Come, walk with me. They'll
be serving some vile stew in the common hall by now, and I could do with a bowl of something hot."


Jon was hungry too, so he fell in beside Lannister and slowed his pace to match the dwarf's awkward,
waddling steps. The wind was rising, and they could hear the old wooden buildings creaking around
them, and in the distance a heavy shutter banging, over and over, forgotten. Once there was a muffled
thump as a blanket of snow slid from a roof and landed near them.
"I don't see your wolf," Lannister said as they walked.
"I chain him up in the old stables when we're training. They board all the horses in the east stables now,
so no one bothers him. The rest of the time he stays with me. My sleeping cell is in Hardin's Tower."
"That's the one with the broken battlement, no? Shattered stone in the yard below, and a lean to it like
our noble king Robert after a long night's drinking? I thought all those buildings had been abandoned."
Jon shrugged. "No one cares where you sleep. Most of the old keeps are empty, you can pick any cell
you want." Once Castle Black had housed five thousand fighting men with all their horses and servants
and weapons. Now it was home to a tenth that number, and parts of it were falling into ruin.
Tyrion Lannister's laughter steamed in the cold air. "I'll be sure to tell your father to arrest more
stonemasons, before your tower collapses."
Jon could taste the mockery there, but there was no denying the truth. The Watch had built nineteen
great strongholds along the Wall, but only three were still occupied: Eastwatch on its grey windswept
shore, the Shadow Tower hard by the mountains where the Wall
ended, and Castle Black between them, at the end of the kingsroad. The other keeps, long deserted,
were lonely, haunted places, where cold winds whistled through black windows and the spirits of the
dead manned the parapets.
"It's better that I'm by myself," Jon said stubbornly. "The rest of them are scared of Ghost."
"Wise boys," Lannister said. Then he changed the subject. "The talk is, your uncle is too long away."
Jon remembered the wish he'd wished in his anger, the vision of Benjen Stark dead in the snow, and he
looked away quickly. The dwarf had a way of sensing things, and Jon did not want him to see the guilt in
his eyes. "He said he'd be back by my name day," he admitted. His name day had come and gone,
unremarked, a fortnight past. "They were looking for Ser Waymar Royce, his father is bannerman to
Lord Arryn. Uncle Benjen said they might search as far as the Shadow Tower. That's all the way up in
the mountains."
"I hear that a good many rangers have vanished of late," Lannister said as they mounted the steps to the
common hall. He grinned and pulled open the door. "Perhaps the grumkins are hungry this year."
Inside, the hall was immense and drafty, even with a fire roaring in its great hearth. Crows nested in the
timbers of its lofty ceiling. Jon heard their cries overhead as he accepted a bowl of stew and a heel of
black bread from the day's cooks. Grenn and Toad and some of the others were seated at the bench
nearest the warmth, laughing and cursing each other in rough voices. Jon eyed them thoughtfully for a
moment. Then he chose a spot at the far end of the hall, well away from the other diners.


Tyrion Lannister sat across from him, sniffing at the stew suspiciously. "Barley, onion, carrot," he
muttered. "Someone should tell the cooks that turnip isn't a meat."
"It's mutton stew." Jon pulled off his gloves and warmed his hands in the steam rising from the bowl. The
smell made his mouth water.
"Snow."
Jon knew Alliser Thorne's voice, but there was a curious note in it that he had not heard before. He
turned.
"The Lord Commander wants to see you. Now."
For a moment Jon was too frightened to move. Why would the Lord Commander want to see him?
They had heard something about Benjen, he thought wildly, he was dead, the vision had come true. "Is it
my uncle?" he blurted. "Is he returned safe?"
"The Lord Commander is not accustomed to waiting," was Ser
Alliser's reply. "And I am not accustomed to having my commands questioned by bastards."
Tyrion Lannister swung off the bench and rose. "Stop it, Thorne. You're frightening the boy."
"Keep out of matters that don't concern you, Lannister. You have no place here."
"I have a place at court, though," the dwarf said, smiling. "A word in the right ear, and you'll die a sour
old man before you get another boy to train. Now tell Snow why the Old Bear needs to see him. Is there
news of his uncle?"
"No," Ser Alliser said. "This is another matter entirely. A bird arrived this morning from Winterfell, with a
message that concerns his brother." He corrected himself. "His half brother."
"Bran," Jon breathed, scrambling to his feet. "Something's happened to Bran."
Tyrion Lannister laid a hand on his arm. "Jon," he said. "I am truly sorry."
Jon scarcely heard him. He brushed off Tyrion's hand and strode across the hall. He was running by the
time he hit the doors. He raced to the Commander's Keep, dashing through drifts of old snow. When the
guards passed him, he took the tower steps two at a time. By the time he burst into the presence of the
Lord Commander, his boots were soaked and Jon was wild-eyed and panting. "Bran," he said. "What
does it say about Bran?"
Jeor Mormont, Lord Commander of the Night's Watch, was a gruff old man with an immense bald head
and a shaggy grey beard. He had a raven on his arm, and he was feeding it kernels of corn. "I am told
you can read." He shook the raven off, and it flapped its wings and flew to the window, where it sat
watching as Mormont drew a roll of paper from his belt and handed it to Jon. "Com, " it muttered in a
raucous voice. "Com, com. "
Jon's finger traced the outline of the direwolf in the white wax of the broken seat. He recognized Robb's


hand, but the letters seemed to blur and run as he tried to read them. He realized he was crying. And
then, through the tears, he found the sense in the words, and raised his head. "He woke up," he said.
"The gods gave him back."
"Crippled," Mormont said. "I'm sorry, boy. Read the rest of the letter."
He looked at the words, but they didn't matter. Nothing mattered. Bran was going to live. "My brother is
going to live," he told Mormont. The Lord Commander shook his head, gathered up a fistful of corn, and
whistled. The raven flew to his shoulder, crying, "Live! Live!"
Jon ran down the stairs, a smile on his face and Robb's letter in his hand. "My brother is going to live,"
he told the guards. They exchanged a look. He ran back to the common hall, where he found Tyrion
Lannister just finishing his meal. He grabbed the little man under the arms, hoisted him up in the air, and
spun him around in a circle. "Bran is going to live!" he whooped. Lannister looked startled. Jon put him
down and thrust the paper into his hands. "Here, read it," he said.
Others were gathering around and looking at him curiously. Jon noticed Grenn a few feet away. A thick
woolen bandage was wrapped around one hand. He looked anxious and uncomfortable, not menacing at
all. Jon went to him. Grenn edged backward and put up his hands. "Stay away from me now, you
bastard."
Jon smiled at him. "I'm sorry about your wrist. Robb used the same move on me once, only with a
wooden blade. It hurt like seven hells, but yours must be worse. Look, if you want, I can show you how
to defend that."
Alliser Thorne overheard him. "Lord Snow wants to take my place now." He sneered. "I'd have an
easier time teaching a wolf to juggle than you will training this aurochs."
"I'll take that wager, Ser Alliser," Jon said. "I'd love to see Ghost juggle."
Jon heard Grenn suck in his breath, shocked. Silence fell.
Then Tyrion Lannister guffawed. Three of the black brothers joined in from a nearby table. The laughter
spread up and down the benches, until even the cooks joined in. The birds stirred in the rafters, and
finally even Grenn began to chuckle.
Ser Alliser never took his eyes from Jon. As the laughter rolled around him, his face darkened, and his
sword hand curled into a fist. "That was a grievous error, Lord Snow," he said at last in the acid tones of
an enemy.
EDDARD
Eddard Stark rode through the towering bronze doors of the Red Keep sore, tired, hungry, and irritable.
He was still a horse, dreaming of a long hot soak, a roast fowl, and a featherbed, when the king's
steward told him that Grand Maester Pycelle had convened an urgent meeting of the small council. The
honor of the Hand's presence was requested as soon as it was convenient. "It will be convenient on the
morrow," Ned snapped as he dismounted.


The steward bowed very low. "I shall give the councillors your regrets, my lord."
"No, damn it," Ned said. It would not do to offend the council before he had even begun. "I will see
them. Pray give me a few moments to change into something more presentable."
"Yes, my lord," the steward said. "We have given you Lord Arryn's former chambers in the Tower of
the Hand, if it please you. I shall have your things taken there."
"My thanks," Ned said as he ripped off his riding gloves and tucked them into his belt. The rest of his
household was coming through the gate behind him. Ned saw Vayon Poole, his own steward, and called
out. "It seems the council has urgent need of me. See that my daughters find their bedchambers, and tell
Jory to keep them there. Arya is not to go exploring." Poole bowed. Ned turned back to the royal
steward. "My wagons are still straggling through the city. I shall need appropriate garments."
"It will be my great pleasure," the steward said.
And so Ned had come striding into the council chambers, bonetired and dressed in borrowed clothing,
to find four members of the small council waiting for him.
The chamber was richly furnished. Myrish carpets covered the floor instead of rushes, and in one corner
a hundred fabulous beasts cavorted in bright paints on a carved screen from the Summer Isles. The walls
were hung with tapestries from Norvos and Qohor and Lys, and a pair of Valyrian sphinxes flanked the
door, eyes of polished garnet smoldering in black marble faces.
The councillor Ned liked least, the eunuch Varys, accosted him the moment he entered. "Lord Stark, I
was grievous sad to hear about your troubles on the kingsroad. We have all been visiting the sept to light
candles for Prince Joffrey. I pray for his recovery." His hand left powder stains on Ned's sleeve, and he
smelled as foul and sweet as flowers on a grave.
"Your gods have heard you," Ned replied, cool yet polite. "The prince grows stronger every day." He
disentangled himself from the eunuch's grip and crossed the room to where Lord Renly stood by the
screen, talking quietly with a short man who could only be Littlefinger. Renly had been a boy of eight
when Robert won the throne, but he had grown into a man so like his brother that Ned found it
disconcerting. Whenever he saw him, it was as if the years had slipped away and Robert stood before
him, fresh from his victory on the Trident.
"I see you have arrived safely, Lord Stark," Renly said.
"And you as well," Ned replied. "You must forgive me, but sometimes you look the very image of your
brother Robert."
"A poor copy," Renly said with a shrug.
"Though much better dressed," Littlefinger quipped. "Lord Renly spends more on clothing than half the
ladies of the court."
It was true enough. Lord Renly was in dark green velvet, with a dozen golden stags embroidered on his


doublet. A cloth-of-gold half cape was draped casually across one shoulder, fastened with an emerald
brooch. "There are worse crimes," Renly said with a laugh. "The wayyou dress, for one."
Littlefinger ignored the jibe. He eyed Ned with a smile on his lips that bordered on insolence. "I have
hoped to meet you for some years, Lord Stark. No doubt Lady Catelyn has mentioned me to you."
"She has," Ned replied with a chill in his voice. The sly arrogance of
the comment rankled him. "I understand you knew my brother Brandon as well."
Renly Baratheon laughed. Varys shuffled over to listen.
"Rather too well," Littlefinger said. "I still carry a token of his esteem. Did Brandon speak of me too?"
"Often, and with some heat," Ned said, hoping that would end it. He had no patience with this game they
played, this dueling with words.
"I should have thought that heat ill suits you Starks," Littlefinger said. "Here in the south, they say you are
all made of ice, and melt when you ride below the Neck."
"I do not plan on melting soon, Lord Baelish. You may count on it." Ned moved to the council table and
said, "Maester Pycelle, I trust you are well."
The Grand Maester smiled gently from his tall chair at the foot of the table. "Well enough for a man of
my years, my lord," he replied, "yet I do tire easily, I fear." Wispy strands of white hair fringed the broad
bald dome of his forehead above a kindly face. His maester's collar was no simple metal choker such as
Luwin wore, but two dozen heavy chains wound together into a ponderous metal necklace that covered
him from throat to breast. The links were forged of every metal known to man: black iron and red gold,
bright copper and dull lead, steel and tin and pale silver, brass and bronze and platinum. Garnets and
amethysts and black pearls adorned the metalwork, and here and there an emerald or ruby. "Perhaps we
might begin soon," the Grand Maester said, hands knitting together atop his broad stomach. "I fear I shall
fall asleep if we wait much longer."
"As you will." The king's seat sat empty at the head of the table, the crowned stag of Baratheon
embroidered in gold thread on its pillows. Ned took the chair beside it, as the right hand of his king. "My
lords," he said formally, "I am sorry to have kept you waiting."
"You are the King's Hand," Varys said. "We serve at your pleasure, Lord Stark."
As the others took their accustomed seats, it struck Eddard Stark forcefully that he did not belong here,
in this room, with these men. He remembered what Robert had told him in the crypts below Winterfell. I
am surrounded by flatterers andfools, the king had insisted. Ned looked down the council table and
wondered which were the flatterers and which the fools. He thought he knew already. "We are but five,"
he pointed out.
"Lord Stannis took himself to Dragonstone not long after the king went north," Varys said, "and our
gallant Ser Barristan no doubt rides


beside the king as he makes his way through the city, as befits the Lord Commander of the Kingsguard."
"Perhaps we had best wait for Ser Barristan and the king to join us," Ned suggested.
Renly Baratheon laughed aloud. "If we wait for my brother to grace us with his royal presence, it could
be a long sit."
"Our good King Robert has many cares," Varys said. "He entrusts some small matters to us, to lighten
his load."
"What Lord Varys means is that all this business of coin and crops and justice bores my royal brother to
tears," Lord Renly said, "so it falls to us to govern the realm. He does send us a command from time to
time." He drew a tightly rolled paper from his sleeve and laid it on the table. "This morning he
commanded me to ride ahead with all haste and ask Grand Maester Pycelle to convene this council at
once. He has an urgent task for us."
Littlefinger smiled and handed the paper to Ned. It bore the royal seal. Ned broke the wax with his
thumb and flattened the letter to consider the king's urgent command, reading the words with mounting
disbelief. Was there no end to Robert's folly? And to do this in his name, that was salt in the wound.
"Gods be good," he swore.
"What Lord Eddard means to say," Lord Renly announced, "is that His Grace instructs us to stage a
great tournament in honor of his appointment as the Hand of the King."
"How much?" asked Littlefinger, mildly.
Ned read the answer off the letter. "Forty thousand golden dragons to the champion. Twenty thousand
to the man who comes second, another twenty to the winner of the melee, and ten thousand to the victor
of the archery competition."
"Ninety thousand gold pieces," Littlefinger sighed. "And we must not neglect the other costs. Robert will
want a prodigious feast. That means cooks, carpenters, serving girls, singers, jugglers, fools
"Fools we have in plenty," Lord Renly said.
Grand Maester Pycelle looked to Littlefinger and asked, "Will the treasury bear the expense?"
"What treasury is that?" Littlefinger replied with a twist of his mouth. "Spare me the foolishness, Maester.
You know as well as I that the treasury has been empty for years. I shall have to borrow the money. No
doubt the Lannisters will be accommodating. We owe Lord Tywin some three million dragons at present,
what matter another hundred thousand?"
Ned was stunned. "Are you claiming that the Crown is three million gold pieces in debt?"
"The Crown is more than six million gold pieces in debt, Lord Stark. The Lannisters are the biggest part
of it, but we have also borrowed from Lord Tyrell, the Iron Bank of Braavos, and several Tyroshi trading
cartels. Of late I've had to turn to the Faith. The High Septon haggles worse than a Dornish fishmonger."


Ned was aghast. "Aerys Targaryen left a treasury flowing with gold. How could you let this happen?"
Littlefinger gave a shrug. "The master of coin finds the money. The king and the Hand spend it."
"I will not believe that Jon Arryn allowed Robert to beggar the realm," Ned said hotly.
Grand Maester Pycelle shook his great bald head, his chains clinking softly. "Lord Arryn was a prudent
man, but I fear that His Grace does not always listen to wise counsel."
"My royal brother loves tournaments and feasts," Renly Baratheon said, "and he loathes what he calls
'counting coppers.' "
"I will speak with His Grace," Ned said. "This tourney is an extravagance the realm cannot afford."
"Speak to him as you will," Lord Renly said, "we had still best make our plans."
"Another day," Ned said. Perhaps too sharply, from the looks they gave him. He would have to
remember that he was no longer in Winterfell, where only the king stood higher; here, he was but first
among equals. "Forgive me, my lords," he said in a softer tone. "I am tired. Let us call a halt for today
and resume when we are fresher." He did not ask for their consent, but stood abruptly, nodded at them
all, and made for the door.
Outside, wagons and riders were still pouring through the castle gates, and the yard was a chaos of mud
and horseflesh and shouting men. The king had not yet arrived, he was told. Since the ugliness on the
Trident, the Starks and their household had ridden well ahead of the main column, the better to separate
themselves from the Lannisters and the growing tension. Robert had hardly been seen; the talk was he
was traveling in the huge wheelhouse, drunk as often as not. If so, he might be hours behind, but he
would still be here too soon for Ned's liking. He had only to look at Sansa's face to feel the rage twisting
inside him once again. The last fortnight of their journey had been a misery. Sansa blamed Arya and told
her that it should have been Nymeria who died. And Arya was lost after she heard what had happened
to her butcher's boy. Sansa cried herself to sleep, Arya brooded silently all day long, and Eddard Stark
dreamed of a frozen hell reserved for the Starks of Winterfell.
He crossed the outer yard, passed under a portcullis into the inner bailey, and was walking toward what
he thought was the Tower of the Hand when Littlefinger appeared in front of him. "You're going the
wrong way, Stark. Come with me."
Hesitantly, Ned followed. Littlefinger led him into a tower, down a stair, across a small sunken
courtyard, and along a deserted corridor where empty suits of armor stood sentinel along the walls. They
were relics of the Targaryens, black steel with dragon scales cresting their helms, now dusty and
forgotten. "This is not the way to my chambers," Ned said.
"Did I say it was? I'm leading you to the dungeons to slit your throat and seal your corpse up behind a
wall," Littlefinger replied, his voice dripping with sarcasm. "We have no time for this, Stark. Your wife
awaits."
"What game are you playing, Littlefinger? Catelyn is at Winterfell, hundreds of leagues from here."
"Oh?" Littlefinger's grey-green eyes glittered with amusement. "Then it appears someone has managed


an astonishing impersonation. For the last time, come. Or don't come, and I'll keep her for myself." He
hurried down the steps.
Ned followed him warily, wondering if this day would ever end. He had no taste for these intrigues, but
he was beginning to realize that they were meat and mead to a man like Littlefinger.
At the foot of the steps was a heavy door of oak and iron. Petyr Baelish lifted the crossbar and gestured
Ned through. They stepped out into the ruddy glow of dusk, on a rocky bluff high above the river.
"We're outside the castle," Ned said.
"You are a hard man to fool, Stark," Littlefinger said with a smirk. "Was it the sun that gave it away, or
the sky? Follow me. There are niches cut in the rock. Try not to fall to your death, Catelyn would never
understand." With that, he was over the side of the cliff, descending as quick as a monkey.
Ned studied the rocky face of the bluff for a moment, then followed more slowly. The niches were there,
as Littlefinger had promised, shallow cuts that would be invisible from below, unless you knew just where
to look for them. The river was a long, dizzying distance below. Ned kept his face pressed to the rock
and tried not to look down any more often than he had to.
When at last he reached the bottom, a narrow, muddy trail along the water's edge, Littlefinger was lazing
against a rock and eating an apple. He was almost down to the core. "You are growing old and slow,
Stark," he said, flipping the apple casually into the rushing water.
A GAME, OF THRONLS 175
"No matter, we ride the rest of the way." He had two horses waiting. Ned mounted up and trotted
behind him, down the trail and into the city.
Finally Baelish drew rein in front of a ramshackle building, three stories, timbered, its windows bright
with lamplight in the gathering dusk. The sounds of music and raucous laughter drifted out and floated
over the water. Beside the door swung an ornate oil lamp on a heavy chain, with a globe of leaded red
glass.
Ned Stark dismounted in a fury. "A brothel," he said as he seized Littlefinger by the shoulder and spun
him around. "You've brought me all this way to take me to a brothel."
"Your wife is inside," Littlefinger said.
It was the final insult. "Brandon was too kind to you," Ned said as he slammed the small man back
against a wall and shoved his dagger up under the little pointed chin beard.
"My lord, no," an urgent voice called out. "He speaks the truth." There were footsteps behind him.
Ned spun, knife in hand, as an old white-haired man hurried toward them. He was dressed in brown
roughspun, and the soft flesh under his chin wobbled as he ran. "This is no business of yours," Ned
began; then, suddenly, the recognition came. He lowered the dagger, astonished. "Ser Rodfik?"
Rodrik Cassel nodded. "Your lady awaits you upstairs."
Ned was lost. "Catelyn is truly here? This is not some strange jape of Littlefinger's?" He sheathed his
blade.


"Would that it were, Stark," Littlefinger said. "Follow me, and try to look a shade more lecherous and a
shade less like the King's Hand. It would not do to have you recognized. Perhaps you could fondle a
breast or two, just in passing."
They went inside, through a crowded common room where a fat woman was singing bawdy songs while
pretty young girls in linen shifts and wisps of colored silk pressed themselves against their lovers and
dandled on their laps. No one paid Ned the least bit of attention. Ser Rodrik waited below while
Littlefinger led him up to the third floor, along a corridor, and through a door.
Inside, Catelyn was waiting. She cried out when she saw him, ran to him, and embraced him fiercely.
"My lady," Ned whispered in wonderment.
"Oh, very good," said Littlefinger, closing the door. "You recognized her."
"I feared you'd never come, my lord," she whispered against his
chest. "Petyr has been bringing me reports. He told me of your troubles with Arya and the young prince.
How are my girls?"
"Both in mourning, and full of anger," he told her. "Cat, I do not understand. What are you doing in
King's Landing? What's happened?" Ned asked his wife. "Is it Bran? Is he . . ." Dead was the word that
came to his lips, but he could not say it.
"It is Bran, but not as you think," Catelyn said.
Ned was lost. "Then how? Why are you here, my love? What is this place?"
"Just what it appears," Littlefinger said, easing himself onto a window seat. "A brothel. Can you think of
a less likely place to find a Catelyn Tully?" He smiled. "As it chances, I own this particular establishment,
so arrangements were easily made. I am most anxious to keep the Lannisters from learning that Cat is
here in King's Landing."
"Why?" Ned asked. He saw her hands then, the awkward way she held them, the raw red scars, the
stiffness of the last two fingers on her left. "You've been hurt." He took her hands in his own, turned them
over. "Gods. Those are deep cuts . . . a gash from a sword or . . . how did this happen, my lady?"
Catelyn slid a dagger out from under her cloak and placed it in his hand. "This blade was sent to open
Bran's throat and spill his life's blood."
Ned's head jerked up. "But . . . who . . . why would
She put a finger to his lips. "Let me tell it all, my love. It will go faster that way. Listen."
So he listened, and she told it all, from the fire in the library tower to Varys and the guardsmen and
Littlefinger. And when she was done, Eddard Stark sat dazed beside the table, the dagger in his hand.
Bran's wolf had saved the boy's life, he thought dully. What was it that Jon had said when they found the
pups in the snow? Your children were meant to have these pups, my lord. And he had killed Sansa's, and


for what? Was it guilt he was feeling? Or fear? If the gods had sent these wolves, what folly had he
done?
Painfully, Ned forced his thoughts back to the dagger and what it meant. "The Imp's dagger," he
repeated. It made no sense. His hand curled around the smooth dragonbone hilt, and he slammed the
blade into the table, felt it bite into the wood. It stood mocking him. "Why should Tyrion Lannister want
Bran dead? The boy has never done him harm."
"Do you Starks have nought but snow between your ears?" Littlefinger asked. "The Imp would never
have acted alone."
Ned rose and paced the length of the room. "If the queen had a role
in this or, gods forbid, the king himself ... no, I will not believe that." Yet even as he said the words, he
remembered that chill morning on the barrowlands, and Robert's talk of sending hired knives after the
Targaryen princess. He remembered Rhaegar's infant son, the red ruin of his skull, and the way the king
had turned away, as he had turned away in Darry's audience hall not so long ago. He could still hear
Sansa pleading, as Lyanna had pleaded once.
"Most likely the king did not know," Littlefinger said. "It would not be the first time. Our good Robert is
practiced at closing his eyes to things he would rather not see."
Ned had no reply for that. The face of the butcher's boy swam up before his eyes, cloven almost in two,
and afterward the king had said not a word. His head was pounding.
Littlefinger sauntered over to the table, wrenched the knife from the wood. "The accusation is treason
either way. Accuse the king and you will dance with Ilyn Payne before the words are out of your mouth.
The queen . . . if you can find proof, and if you can make Robert listen, then perhaps . . .
"We have proof," Ned said. "We have the dagger."
"This?" Littlefinger flipped the knife casually end over end. "A sweet piece of steel, but it cuts two ways,
my lord. The Imp will no doubt swear the blade was lost or stolen while he was at Winterfell, and with
his hireling dead, who is there to give him the lie?" He tossed the knife lightly to Ned. "My counsel is to
drop that in the river and forget that it was ever forged."
Ned regarded him coldly. "Lord Baelish, I am a Stark of Winterfell. My son lies crippled, perhaps dying.
He would be dead, and Catelyn with him, but for a wolf pup we found in the snow. If you truly believe I
could forget that, you are as big a fool now as when you took up sword against my brother."
"A fool I may be, Stark . . . yet I'm still here, while your brother has been moldering in his frozen grave
for some fourteen years now. If you are so eager to molder beside him, far be it from me to dissuade
you, but I would rather not be included in the party, thank you very much."
"You would be the last man I would willingly include in any party, Lord Baelish."
"You wound me deeply." Littlefinger placed a hand over his heart. "For my part, I always found you
Starks a tiresome lot, but Cat seems to have become attached to you, for reasons I cannot comprehend.
I shall try to keep you alive for her sake. A fool's task, admittedly, but I could never refuse your wife


anything."
Littlefinger. "I should warn you, Stark, we usually charge for that sort of thing around here."
"A moment alone, that's all I ask," Catelyn said.
"Very well." Littlefinger strolled to the door. "Don't be too long. It is past time the Hand and I returned
to the castle, before our absence is noted."
Catelyn went to him and took his hands in her own. "I will not forget the help you gave me, Petyr. When
your men came for me, I did not know whether they were taking me to a friend or an enemy. I have
found you more than a friend. I have found a brother I'd thought lost."
Petyr Baelish smiled. "I am desperately sentimental, sweet lady. Best not tell anyone. I have spent years
convincing the court that I am wicked and cruel, and I should hate to see all that hard work go for
naught."
Ned believed not a word of that, but he kept his voice polite as he said, "You have my thanks as well,
Lord Baelish."
"Oh, now there's a treasure," Littlefinger said, exiting.
When the door had closed behind him, Ned turned back to his wife. "Once you are home, send word to
Helman Tallhart and Galbart Glover under my seal. They are to raise a hundred bowmen each and fortify
Moat Cailin. Two hundred determined archers can hold the Neck against an army. Instruct Lord
Manderly that he is to strengthen and repair all his defenses at White Harbor, and see that they are well
manned. And from this day on, I want a careful watch kept over Theon Greyjoy. If there is war, we shall
have sore need of his father's fleet."
"War?" The fear was plain on Catelyn's face.
"It will not come to that," Ned promised her, praying it was true. He took her in his arms again. "The
Lannisters are merciless in the face of weakness, as Aerys Targaryen learned to his sorrow, but they
would not dare attack the north without all the power of the realm behind them, and that they shall not
have. I must play out this fool's masquerade as if nothing is amiss. Remember why I came here, my love.
If I find proof that the Lannisters murdered Jon Arryn . . .
He felt Catelyn tremble in his arms. Her scarred hands clung to him. "If," she said, "what then, my love?"
That was the most dangerous part, Ned knew. "All justice flows from the king," he told her. "When I
know the truth, I must go to Robert." And pray that he is the man I think he is, he finished silently, and
not the man I fear he has become.
TYRION
Are you certain that you must leave us so soon?" the Lord Commander asked him.


"Past certain, Lord Mormont," Tyrion replied. "My brother Jaime will be wondering what has become
of me. He may decide that you have convinced me to take the black."
"Would that I could." Mormont picked up a crab claw and cracked it in his fist. Old as he was, the Lord
Commander still had the strength of a bear. "You're a cunning man, Tyrion. We have need of men of
your sort on the Wall."
Tyrion grinned. "Then I shall scour the Seven Kingdoms for dwarfs and ship them all to you, Lord
Mormont." As they laughed, he sucked the meat from a crab leg and reached for another. The crabs had
arrived from Eastwatch only this morning, packed in a barrel of snow, and they were succulent.
Ser Alliser Thorne was the only man at table who did not so much as crack a smile. "Lannister mocks
us."
"Only you, Ser Alliser," Tyrion said. This time the laughter round the table had a nervous, uncertain
quality to it.
Thorne's black eyes fixed on Tyrion with loathing. "You have a bold tongue for someone who is less
than half a man. Perhaps you and I should visit the yard together."
"Why?" asked Tyrion. "The crabs are here."
The remark brought more guffaws from the others. Ser Alliser stood up, his mouth a tight line. "Come
and make your j apes with steel in your hand."
Tyrion looked pointedly at his right hand. "Why, I have steel in my hand, Ser Alliser, although it appears
to be a crab fork. Shall we duel?" He hopped up on his chair and began poking at Thorne's chest with
the tiny fork. Roars of laughter filled the tower room. Bits of crab flew from the Lord Commander's
mouth as he began to gasp and choke. Even his raven joined in, cawing loudly from above the window.
"Duel! Duel! Duel!"
Ser Alliser Thorne walked from the room so stiffly it looked as though he had a dagger up his butt.
Mormont was still gasping for breath. Tyrion pounded him on the back. "To the victor goes the spoils,"
he called out. "I claim Thorne's share of the crabs."
Finally the Lord Commander recovered himself. "You are a wicked man, to provoke our Ser Alliser so,"
he scolded.
Tyrion seated himself and took a sip of wine. "If a man paints a target on his chest, he should expect that
sooner or later someone will loose an arrow at him. I have seen dead men with more humor than your
Ser Alliser."
"Not so," objected the Lord Steward, Bowen Marsh, a man as round and red as a pomegranate. "You
ought to hear the droll names he gives the lads he trains."
Tyrion had heard a few of those droll names. "I'll wager the lads have a few names for him as well," he
said. "Chip the ice off your eyes, my good lords. Ser Alliser Thorne should be mucking out your stables,
not drilling your young warriors."


"The Watch has no shortage of stableboys," Lord Mormont grumbled. "That seems to be all they send
us these days. Stableboys and sneak thieves and rapers. Ser Alliser is an anointed knight, one of the few
to take the black since I have been Lord Commander. He fought bravely at King's Landing."
"On the wrong side," Ser Jaremy Rykker commented dryly. "I ought to know, I was there on the
battlements beside him. Tywin Lannister gave us a splendid choice. Take the black, or see our heads on
spikes before evenfall. No offense intended, Tyrion."
"None taken, Ser Jaremy. My father is very fond of spiked heads, especially those of people who have
annoyed him in some fashion. And a face as noble as yours, well, no doubt he saw you decorating the
city wall above the King's Gate. I think you would have looked very striking up there."
"Thank you," Ser Jaremy replied with a sardonic smile.
Lord Commander Mormont cleared his throat. "Sometimes I fear Ser Alliser saw you true, Tyrion. You
do mock us and our noble purpose here."
Tyrion shrugged. "We all need to be mocked from time to time, Lord Mormont, lest we start to take
ourselves too seriously. More wine, please." He held out his cup.
As Rykker filled it for him, Bowen Marsh said, "You have a great thirst for a small man."
"Oh, I think that Lord Tyrion is quite a large man," Maester Aemon said from the far end of the table.
He spoke softly, yet the high officers of the Night's Watch all fell quiet, the better to hear what the ancient
had to say. "I think he is a giant come among us, here at the end of the world."
Tyrion answered gently, "I've been called many things, my lord, but giant is seldom one of them."
"Nonetheless," Maester Aemon said as his clouded, milk-white eyes moved to Tyrion's face, "I think it is
true."
For once, Tyrion Lannister found himself at a loss for words. He could only bow his head politely and
say, "You are too kind, Maester Aemon."
The blind man smiled. He was a tiny thing, wrinkled and hairless, shrunken beneath the weight of a
hundred years so his maester's collar with its links of many metals hung loose about his throat. "I have
been called many things, my lord," he said, "but kind is seldom one of them." This time Tyrion himself led
the laughter.
Much later, when the serious business of eating was done and the others had left, Mormont offered
Tyrion a chair beside the fire and a cup of mulled spirits so strong they brought tears to his eyes. "The
kingsroad can be perilous this far north," the Lord Commander told him as they drank.
"I have Jyck and Morrec," Tyrion said, "and Yoren is riding south again."
"Yoren is only one man. The Watch shall escort you as far as Winterfell," Mormont announced in a tone
that brooked no argument. "Three men should be sufficient."


"If you insist, my lord," Tyrion said. "You might send young Snow. He would be glad for a chance to see
his brothers."
Mormont frowned through his thick grey beard. "Snow? Oh, the Stark bastard. I think not. The young
ones need to forget the lives they left behind them, the brothers and mothers and all that. A visit home
would only stir up feelings best left alone. I know these things. My own
blood kin ... my sister Maege rules Bear Island now, since my son's dishonor. I have nieces I have never
seen." He took a swallow. "Besides, Jon Snow is only a boy. You shall have three strong swords, to
keep you safe."
"I am touched by your concern, Lord Mormont." The strong drink was making Tyrion light-headed, but
not so drunk that he did not realize that the Old Bear wanted something from him. "I hope I can repay
your kindness."
"You can," Mormont said bluntly. "Your sister sits beside the king. Your brother is a great knight, and
your father the most powerful lord in the Seven Kingdoms. Speak to them for us. Tell them of our need
here. You have seen for yourself, my lord. The Night's Watch is dying. Our strength is less than a
thousand now. Six hundred here, two hundred in the Shadow Tower, even fewer at Eastwatch, and a
scant third of those fighting men. The Wall is a hundred leagues long. Think on that. Should an attack
come, I have three men to defend each mile of wall."
"Three and a third," Tyrion said with a yawn.
Mormont scarcely seemed to hear him. The old man warmed his hands before the fire. "I sent Benjen
Stark to search after Yohn Royce's son, lost on his first ranging. The Royce boy was green as summer
grass, yet he insisted on the honor of his own command, saying it was his due as a knight. I did not wish
to offend his lord father, so I yielded. I sent him out with two men I deemed as good as any in the Watch.
More fool U'
"Fool, " the raven agreed. Tyrion glanced up. The bird peered down at him with those beady black eyes,
ruffling its wings. "Fool, " it called again. Doubtless old Mormont would take it amiss if he throttled the
creature. A pity.
The Lord Commander took no notice of the irritating bird. "Gared was near as old as I am and longer
on the Wall," he went on, "yet it would seem he forswore himself and fled. I should never have believed
it, not of him, but Lord Eddard sent me his head from Winterfell. Of Royce, there is no word. One
deserter and two men lost, and now Ben Stark too has gone missing." He sighed deeply. "Who am I to
send searching after him? In two years I will be seventy. Too old and too weary for the burden I bear,
yet if I set it down, who will pick it up? Alliser Thorne? Bowen Marsh? I would have to be as blind as
Maester Aemon not to see what they are. The Night's Watch has become an army of sullen boys and
tired old men. Apart from the men at my table tonight, I have perhaps twenty who can read, and even
fewer who can think, or plan, or lead. Once the Watch spent its summers building, and
each Lord Commander raised the Wall higher than he found it. Now it is all we can do to stay alive."
He was in deadly earnest, Tyrion realized. He felt faintly embarrassed for the old man. Lord Mormont


had spent a good part of his life on the Wall, and he needed to believe if those years were to have any
meaning. "I promise, the king will hear of your need," Tyrion said gravely, "and I will speak to my father
and my brother Jaime as well." And he would. Tyrion Lannister was as good as his word. He left the rest
unsaid; that King Robert would ignore him, Lord Tywin would ask if he had taken leave of his senses,
and Jaime would only laugh.
"You are a young man, Tyrion," Mormont said. "How many winters have you seen?"
He shrugged. "Eight, nine. I misremember."
"And all of them short."
"As you say, my lord." He had been born in the dead of winter, a terrible cruel one that the maesters
said had lasted near three years, but Tyrion's earliest memories were of spring.
"When I was a boy, it was said that a long summer always meant a long winter to come. This summer
has lasted nine years, Tyrion, and a tenth will soon be upon us. Think on that."
"When I was a boy," Tyrion replied, "my wet nurse told me that one day, if men were good, the gods
would give the world a summer without ending. Perhaps we've been better than we thought, and the
Great Summer is finally at hand." He grinned.
The Lord Commander did not seem amused. "You are not fool enough to believe that, my lord. Already
the days grow shorter. There can be no mistake, Aemon has had letters from the Citadel, findings in
accord with his own. The end of summer stares us in the face." Mormont reached out and clutched
Tyrion tightly by the hand. "You must make them understand. I tell you, my lord, the darkness is coming.
There are wild things in the woods, direwolves and mammoths and snow bears the size of aurochs, and I
have seen darker shapes in my dreams."
"In your dreams," Tyrion echoed, thinking how badly he needed another strong drink.
Mormont was deaf to the edge in his voice. "The fisherfolk near Eastwatch have glimpsed white walkers
on the shore."
This time Tyrion could not hold his tongue. "The fisherfolk of Lannisport often glimpse merlings."
"Denys Mallister writes that the mountain people are moving south, slipping past the Shadow Tower in
numbers greater than ever before. They are running, my lord . . . but running from what?" Lord
Mormont moved to the window and stared out into the night. "These are old bones, Lannister, but they
have never felt a chill like this. Tell the king what I say, I pray you. Winter is coming, and when the Long
Night falls, only the Night's Watch will stand between the realm and the darkness that sweeps from the
north. The gods help us all if we are not ready."
"The gods help me if I do not get some sleep tonight. Yoren is determined to ride at first light." Tyrion
got to his feet, sleepy from wine and tired of doom. "I thank you for all the courtesies you have done me,
Lord Mormont."
"Tell them, Tyrion. Tell them and make them believe. That is all the thanks I need." He whistled, and his


raven flew to him and perched on his shoulder. Mormont smiled and gave the bird some corn from his
pocket, and that was how Tyrion left him.
It was bitter cold outside. Bundled thickly in his furs, Tyrion Lannister pulled on his gloves and nodded
to the poor frozen wretches standing sentry outside the Commander's Keep. He set off across the yard
for his own chambers in the King's Tower, walking as briskly as his legs could manage. Patches of snow
crunched beneath his feet as his boots broke the night's crust, and his breath steamed before him like a
banner. He shoved his hands into his armpits and walked faster, praying that Morrec had remembered to
warm his bed with hot bricks from the fire.
Behind the King's Tower, the Wall glimmered in the light of the moon, immense and mysterious. Tyrion
stopped for a moment to look up at it. His legs ached of cold and haste.
Suddenly a strange madness took hold of him, a yearning to look once more off the end of the world. It
would be his last chance, he thought; tomorrow he would ride south, and he could not imagine why he
would ever want to return to this frozen desolation. The King's Tower was before him, with its promise
of warmth and a soft bed, yet Tyrion found himself walking past it, toward the vast pale palisade of the
Wall.
A wooden stair ascended the south face, anchored on huge roughhewn beams sunk deep into the ice
and frozen in place. Back and forth it switched, clawing its way upward as crooked as a bolt of lightning.
The black brothers assured him that it was much stronger than it looked, but Tyrion's legs were cramping
too badly for him to even contemplate the ascent. He went instead to the iron cage beside the well,
clambered inside, and yanked hard on the bell rope, three quick pulls.
He had to wait what seemed an eternity, standing there inside the bars with the Wall to his back. Long
enough for Tyrion to begin to wonder why he was doing this. He had just about decided to forget his
sudden whim and go to bed when the cage gave a jerk and began to ascend.
He moved upward slowly, by fits and starts at first, then more smoothly. The ground fell away beneath
him, the cage swung, and Tyrion wrapped his hands around the iron bars. He could feel the cold of the
metal even through his gloves. Morrec had a fire burning in his room, he noted with approval, but the
Lord Commander's tower was dark. The Old Bear had more sense than he did, it seemed.
Then he was above the towers, still inching his way upward. Castle Black lay below him, etched in
moonlight. You could see how stark and empty it was from up here; windowless keeps, crumbling walls,
courtyards choked with broken stone. Farther off, he could see the lights of Mole's Town, the little village
half a league south along the kingsroad, and here and there the bright glitter of moonlight on water where
icy streams descended from the mountain heights to cut across the plains. The rest of the world was a
bleak emptiness of windswept hills and rocky fields spotted with snow.
Finally a thick voice behind him said, "Seven hells, it's the dwarf," and the cage jerked to a sudden stop
and hung there, swinging slowly back and forth, the ropes creaking.
"Bring him in, damn it." There was a grunt and a loud groaning of wood as the cage slid sideways and
then the Wall was beneath him. Tyrion waited until the swinging had stopped before he pushed open the
cage door and hopped down onto the ice. A heavy figure in black was leaning on the winch, while a
second held the cage with a gloved hand. Their faces were muffled in woolen scarves so only their eyes
showed, and they were plump with layers of wool and leather, black on black. "And what will you be


wanting, this time of night?" the one by the winch asked.
"A last look."
The men exchanged sour glances. "Look all you want," the other one said. "Just have a care you don't
fall off, little man. The Old Bear would have our hides." A small wooden shack stood under the great
crane, and Tyrion saw the dull glow of a brazier and felt a brief gust of warmth when the winch men
opened the door and went back inside. And then he was alone.
It was bitingly cold up here, and the wind pulled at his clothes like an insistent lover. The top of the Wall
was wider than the kingsroad
often was, so Tyrion had no fear of falling, although the footing was slicker than he would have liked.
The brothers spread crushed stone across the walkways, but the weight of countless footsteps would
melt the Wall beneath, so the ice would seem to grow around the gravel, swallowing it, until the path was
bare again and it was time to crush more stone.
Still, it was nothing that Tyrion could not manage. He looked off to the east and west, at the Wall
stretching before him, a vast white road with no beginning and no end and a dark abyss on either side.
West, he decided, for no special reason, and he began to walk that way, following the pathway nearest
the north edge, where the gravel looked freshest.
His bare cheeks were ruddy with the cold, and his legs complained more loudly with every step, but
Tyrion ignored them. The wind swirled around him, gravel crunched beneath his boots, while ahead the
white ribbon followed the lines of the hills, rising higher and higher, until it was lost beyond the western
horizon. He passed a massive catapult, as tall as a city wall, its base sunk deep into the Wall. The
throwing arm had been taken off for repairs and then forgotten; it lay there like a broken toy,
half-embedded in the ice.
On the far side of the catapult, a muffled voice called out a challenge. "Who goes there? Halt!"
Tyrion stopped. "If I halt too long I'll freeze in place, Jon," he said as a shaggy pale shape slid toward
him silently and sniffed at his furs. "Hello, Ghost."
Jon Snow moved closer. He looked bigger and heavier in his layers of fur and leather, the hood of his
cloak pulled down over his face. "Lannister," he said, yanking loose the scarf to uncover his mouth. "This
is the last place I would have expected to see you." He carried a heavy spear tipped in iron, taller than he
was, and a sword hung at his side in a leather sheath. Across his chest was a gleaming black warhorn,
banded with silver.
"This is the last place I would have expected to be seen," Tyrion admitted. "I was captured by a whim. If
I touch Ghost, will he chew my hand off?"
"Not with me here," Jon promised.
Tyrion scratched the white wolf behind the ears. The red eyes watched him impassively. The beast came
up as high as his chest now. Another year, and Tyrion had the gloomy feeling he'd be looking up at him.
"What are you doing up here tonight?" he asked. "Besides freezing your manhood off . . ."


"I have drawn night guard," Jon said. "Again. Ser Alliser has kindly arranged for the watch commander
to take a special interest in me. He seems to think that if they keep me awake half the night, I'll fall asleep
during morning drill. So far I have disappointed him."
Tyrion grinned. "And has Ghost learned to juggle yet?"
"No," said Jon, smiling, "but Grenn held his own against Halder this morning, and Pyp is no longer
dropping his sword quite so often as he did."
"Pyp?"
"Pypar is his real name. The small boy with the large ears. He saw me working with Grenn and asked for
help. Thorne had never even shown him the proper way to grip a sword." He turned to look north. "I
have a mile of Wall to guard. Will you walk with me?"
"If you walk slowly," Tyrion said.
"The watch commander tells me I must walk, to keep my blood from freezing, but he never said how
fast."
They walked, with Ghost pacing along beside Jon like a white shadow. "I leave on the morrow," Tyrion
said.
"I know." Jon sounded strangely sad.
"I plan to stop at Winterfell on the way south. If there is any message that you would like me to deliver .
. ."
"Tell Robb that I'm going to command the Night's Watch and keep him safe, so he might as well take up
needlework with the girls and have Mikken melt down his sword for horseshoes."
"Your brother is bigger than me," Tyrion said with a laugh. "I decline to deliver any message that might
get me killed."
"Rickon will ask when I'm coming home. Try to explain where I've gone, if you can. Tell him he can have
all my things while I'm away, he'll like that."
People seemed to be asking a great deal of him today, Tyrion Lannister thought. "You could put all this
in a letter, you know."
"Rickon can't read yet. Bran . . ." He stopped suddenly. "I don't know what message to send to Bran.
Help him, Tyrion."
"What help could I give him? I am no maester, to ease his pain. I have no spells to give him back his
legs."
"You gave me help when I needed it," Jon Snow said.
"I gave you nothing," Tyrion said. "Words."


"Then give your words to Bran too."
"You're asking a lame man to teach a cripple how to dance," Tyrion said. "However sincere the lesson,
the result is likely to be grotesque. Still, I know what it is to love a brother, Lord Snow. I will give Bran
whatever small help is in my power."
"Thank you, my lord of Lannister." He pulled off his glove and offered his bare hand. "Friend."
Tyrion found himself oddly touched. "Most of my kin are bastards," he said with a wry smile, "but you're
the first I've had to friend." He pulled a glove off with his teeth and clasped Snow by the hand, flesh
against flesh. The boy's grip was firm and strong.
When he had donned his glove again, Jon Snow turned abruptly and walked to the low, icy northern
parapet. Beyond him the Wall fell away sharply; beyond him there was only the darkness and the wild.
Tyrion followed him, and side by side they stood upon the edge of the world.
The Night's Watch permitted the forest to come no closer than half a mile of the north face of the Wall.
The thickets of ironwood and sentinel and oak that had once grown there had been harvested centuries
ago, to create a broad swath of open ground through which no enemy could hope to pass unseen. Tyrion
had heard that elsewhere along the Wall, between the three fortresses, the wildwood had come creeping
back over the decades, that there were places where greygreen sentinels and pale white weirwoods had
taken root in the shadow of the Wall itself, but Castle Black had a prodigious appetite for firewood, and
here the forest was still kept at bay by the axes of the black brothers.
It was never far, though. From up here Tyrion could see it, the dark trees looming beyond the stretch of
open ground, like a second wall built parallel to the first, a wall of night. Few axes had ever swung in that
black wood, where even the moonlight could not penetrate the ancient tangle of root and thorn and
grasping limb. Out there the trees grew huge, and the rangers said they seemed to brood and knew not
men. It was small wonder the Night's Watch named it the haunted forest.
As he stood there and looked at all that darkness with no fires burning anywhere, with the wind blowing
and the cold like a spear in his guts, Tyrion Lannister felt as though he could almost believe the talk of the
Others, the enemy in the night. His jokes of grumkins and snarks no longer seemed quite so droll.
"My uncle is out there," Jon Snow said softly, leaning on his spear as he stared off into the darkness.
"The first night they sent me up here, I thought, Uncle Benjen will ride back tonight, and I'll see him first
and blow the horn. He never came, though. Not that night and not any night."
"Give him time," Tyrion said.
Far off to the north, a wolf began to howl. Another voice picked up
the call, then another. Ghost cocked his head and listened. "If he doesn't come back," Jon Snow
promised, "Ghost and I will go find him." He put his hand on the direwolf's head.
"I believe you," Tyrion said, but what he thought was, And who will go find you? He shivered.


ARYA
Her father had been fighting with the council again. Arya could see it on his face when he came to table,
late again, as he had been so often. The first course, a thick sweet soup made with pumpkins, had
already been taken away when Ned Stark strode into the Small Hall. They called it that to set it apart
from the Great Hall, where the king could feast a thousand, but it was a long room with a high vaulted
ceiling and bench space for two hundred at its trestle tables.
"My lord," Jory said when Father entered. He rose to his feet, and the rest of the guard rose with him.
Each man wore a new cloak, heavy grey wool with a white satin border. A hand of beaten silver clutched
the woolen folds of each cloak and marked their wearers as men of the Hand's household guard. There
were only fifty of them, so most of the benches were empty.
"Be seated," Eddard Stark said. "I see you have started without me. I am pleased to know there are still
some men of sense in this city." He signaled for the meal to resume. The servants began bringing out
platters of ribs, roasted in a crust of garlic and herbs.
"The talk in the yard is we shall have a tourney, my lord," Jory said as he resumed his seat. "They say
that knights will come from all over the realm to joust and feast in honor of your appointment as Hand of
the King."
Arya could see that her father was not very happy about that. "Do they also say this is the last thing in
the world I would have wished?"
Sansa's eyes had grown wide as the plates. "A tourney," she breathed. She was seated between Septa
Mordane and Jeyne Poole, as far from Arya as she could get without drawing a reproach from Father.
"Will we be permitted to go, Father?"
"You know my feelings, Sansa. It seems I must arrange Robert's games and pretend to be honored for
his sake. That does not mean I must subject my daughters to this folly."
"Oh, please," Sansa said. "I want to see."
Septa Mordane spoke up. "Princess Myrcella will be there, my lord, and her younger than Lady Sansa.
All the ladies of the court will be expected at a grand event like this, and as the tourney is in your honor, it
would look queer if your family did not attend."
Father looked pained. "I suppose so. Very well, I shall arrange a place for you, Sansa." He saw Arya.
"For both of you."
"I don't care about their stupid tourney," Arya said. She knew Prince Jofftey would be there, and she
hated Prince Joffrey.
Sansa lifted her head. "It will be a splendid event. You shan't be wanted."
Anger flashed across Father's face. "Enough, Sansa. More of that and you will change my mind. I am


weary unto death of this endless war you two are fighting. You are sisters. I expect you to behave like
sisters, is that understood?"
Sansa bit her lip and nodded. Arya lowered her face to stare sullenly at her plate. She could feel tears
stinging her eyes. She rubbed them away angrily, determined not to cry.
The only sound was the clatter of knives and forks. "Pray excuse me," her father announced to the table.
"I find I have small appetite tonight." He walked from the hall.
After he was gone, Sansa exchanged excited whispers with Jeyne Poole. Down the table Jory laughed at
a joke, and Hullen started in about horseflesh. "Your warhorse, now, he may not be the best one for the
joust. Not the same thing, oh, no, not the same at all." The men had heard it all before; Desmond, Jacks,
and Hullen's son Harwin shouted him down together, and Porther called for more wine.
No one talked to Arya. She didn't care. She liked it that way. She would have eaten her meals alone in
her bedchamber if they let her. Sometimes they did, when Father had to dine with the king or some lord
or the envoys from this place or that place. The rest of the time, they ate in his solar, just him and her and
Sansa. That was when Arya missed her brothers most. She wanted to tease Bran and play with
baby Rickon and have Robb smile at her. She wanted Jon to muss up her hair and call her "little sister"
and finish her sentences with her. But all of them were gone. She had no one left but Sansa, and Sansa
wouldn't even talk to her unless Father made her.
Back at Winterfell, they had eaten in the Great Hall almost half the time. Her father used to say that a
lord needed to eat with his men, if he hoped to keep them. "Know the men who follow you," she heard
him tell Robb once, "and let them know you. Don't ask your men to die for a stranger." At Winterfell, he
always had an extra seat set at his own table, and every day a different man would be asked to join him.
One night it would be Vayon Poole, and the talk would be coppers and bread stores and servants. The
next time it would be Mikken, and her father would listen to him go on about armor and swords and how
hot a forge should be and the best way to temper steel. Another day it might be Hullen with his endless
horse talk, or Septon Chayle from the library, or Jory, or Ser Rodrik, or even Old Nan with her stories.
Arya had loved nothing better than to sit at her father's table and listen to them talk. She had loved
listening to the men on the benches too; to freeriders tough as leather, courtly knights and bold young
squires, grizzled old men-at-arms. She used to throw snowballs at them and help them steal pies from the
kitchen. Their wives gave her scones and she invented names for their babies and played
monsters-andmaidens and hide-the-treasure and come-into-my-castle with their children. Fat Tom used
to call her "Arya Underfoot," because he said that was where she always was. She'd liked that a lot
better than "Arya Horseface."
Only that was Winterfell, a world away, and now everything was changed. This was the first time they
had supped with the men since arriving in King's Landing. Arya hated it. She hated the sounds of their
voices now, the way they laughed, the stories they told. They'd been her friends, she'd felt safe around
them, but now she knew that was a lie. They'd let the queen kill Lady, that was horrible enough, but then
the Hound found Mycah. Jeyne Poole had told Arya that he'd cut him up in so many pieces that they'd
given him back to the butcher in a bag, and at first the poor man had thought it was a pig they'd
slaughtered. And no one had raised a voice or drawn a blade or anything, not Harwin who always talked
so bold, or Alyn who was going to be a knight, or Jory who was captain of the guard. Not even her
father.


"He was my ffiend," Arya whispered into her plate, so low that no one could hear. Her ribs sat there
untouched, grown cold now, a thin film of grease congealing beneath them on the plate. Arya looked at
them and felt ill. She pushed away from the table.
"Pray, where do you think you are going, young lady?" Septa Mordane asked.
"I'm not hungry." Arya found it an effort to remember her courtesies. "May I be excused, please?" she
recited stiffly.
"You may not," the septa said. "You have scarcely touched your food. You will sit down and clean your
plate."
"You clean it!" Before anyone could stop her, Arya bolted for the door as the men laughed and Septa
Mordane called loudly after her, her voice rising higher and higher.
Fat Tom was at his post, guarding the door to the Tower of the Hand. He blinked when he saw Arya
rushing toward him and heard the septa's shouts. "Here now, little one, hold on," he started to say,
reaching, but Arya slid between his legs and then she was running up the winding tower steps, her feet
hammering on the stone while Fat Tom huffed and puffed behind her.
Her bedchamber was the only place that Arya liked in all of King's Landing, and the thing she liked best
about it was the door, a massive slab of dark oak with black iron bands. When she slammed that door
and dropped the heavy crossbar, nobody could get into her room, not Septa Mordane or Fat Tom or
Sansa or Jory or the Hound, nobody! She slammed it now.
When the bar was down, Arya finally felt safe enough to cry.
She went to the window seat and sat there, sniffling, hating them all, and herself most of all. It was all her
fault, everything bad that had happened. Sansa said so, and Jeyne too.
Fat Tom was knocking on her door. "Arya girl, what's wrong?" he called out. "You in there?"
"No!" she shouted. The knocking stopped. A moment later she heard him going away. Fat Tom was
always easy to fool.
Arya went to the chest at the foot of her bed. She knelt, opened the lid, and began pulling her clothes
out with both hands, grabbing handfuls of silk and satin and velvet and wool and tossing them on the
floor. It was there at the bottom of the chest, where she'd hidden it. Arya lifted it out almost tenderly and
drew the slender blade from its sheath.
Needle.
She thought of Mycah again and her eyes filled with tears. Her fault, her fault, her fault. If she had never
asked him to play at swords with her . . .
There was a pounding at her door, louder than before. 'Arya Stark, you open this door at once, do you
hear me?"


Arya spun around, with Needle in her hand. "You better not come in here!" she warned. She slashed at
the air savagely.
"The Hand will hear of this!" Septa Mordane raged.
"I don't care," Arya screamed. "Go away."
"You will rue this insolent behavior, young lady, I promise you that.
Arya listened at the door until she heard the sound of the septa's receding footsteps.
She went back to the window, Needle in hand, and looked down into the courtyard below. If only she
could climb like Bran, she thought; she would go out the window and down the tower, run away from
this horrible place, away from Sansa and Septa Mordane and Prince Joffrey, from all of them. Steal
some food from the kitchens, take Needle and her good boots and a warm cloak. She could find
Nymeria in the wild woods below the Trident, and together they'd return to Winterfell, or run to Jon on
the Wall. She found herself wishing that Jon was here with her now. Then maybe she wouldn't feel so
alone.
A soft knock at the door behind her turned Arya away from the window and her dreams of escape.
"Arya," her father's voice called out. "Open the door. We need to talk."
Arya crossed the room and lifted the crossbar. Father was alone. He seemed more sad than angry. That
made Arya feel even worse. "May I come in?" Arya nodded, then dropped her eyes, ashamed. Father
closed the door. "Whose sword is that?"
"Mine." Arya had almost forgotten Needle, in her hand.
"Give it to me."
Reluctantly Arya surrendered her sword, wondering if she would ever hold it again. Her father turned it
in the light, examining both sides of the blade. He tested the point with his thumb. "A bravo's blade," he
said. "Yet it seems to me that I know this maker's mark. This is Mikken's work."
Arya could not lie to him. She lowered her eyes.
Lord Eddard Stark sighed. "My nine-year-old daughter is being armed from my own forge, and I know
nothing of it. The Hand of the King is expected to rule the Seven Kingdoms, yet it seems I cannot even
rule my own household. How is it that you come to own a sword, Arya? Where did you get this?"
Arya chewed her lip and said nothing. She would not betray Jon, not even to their father.
After a while, Father said, "I don't suppose it matters, truly." He looked down gravely at the sword in his
hands. "This is no toy for children, least of all for a girl. What would Septa Mordane say if she knew you
were playing with swords?"
"I wasn't playing," Arya insisted. "I hate Septa Mordane."


"That's enough." Her father's voice was curt and hard. "The septa is doing no more than is her duty,
though gods know you have made it a struggle for the poor woman. Your mother and I have charged her
with the impossible task of making you a lady."
"I don't want to be a lady!" Arya flared.
"I ought to snap this toy across my knee here and now, and put an end to this nonsense."
"Needle wouldn't break," Arya said defiantly, but her voice betrayed her words.
"It has a name, does it?" Her father sighed. "Ah, Arya. You have a wildness in you, child. 'The wolf
blood,' my father used to call it. Lyanna had a touch of it, and my brother Brandon more than a touch. It
brought them both to an early grave." Arya heard sadness in his voice; he did not often speak of his
father, or of the brother and sister who had died before she was born. "Lyanna might have carried a
sword, if my lord father had allowed it. You remind me of her sometimes. You even look like her."
"Lyanna was beautiful," Arya said, startled. Everybody said so. It was not a thing that was ever said of
Arya.
"She was," Eddard Stark agreed, "beautiful, and willful, and dead before her time." He lifted the sword,
held it out between them. "Arya, what did you think to do with this . . . Needle? Who did you hope to
skewer? Your sister? Septa Mordane? Do you know the first thing about sword fighting?"
All she could think of was the lesson Jon had given her. "Stick them with the pointy end," she blurted
out.
Her father snorted back laughter. "That is the essence of it, I suppose."
Arya desperately wanted to explain, to make him see. "I was trying to learn, but . . ." Her eyes filled with
tears. "I asked Mycah to practice with me." The grief came on her all at once. She turned away, shaking.
"I asked him," she cried. "It was my fault, it was me . . ."
Suddenly her father's arms were around her. He held her gently as she turned to him and sobbed against
his chest. "No, sweet one," he murmured. "Grieve for your friend, but never blame yourself. You did not
kill the butcher's boy. That murder lies at the Hound's door, him and the cruel woman he serves."
"I hate them," Arya confided, red-faced, sniffling. "The Hound and the queen and the king and Prince
Joffrey. I hate all of them. Joffrey lied, it wasn't the way he said. I hate Sansa too. She did remember, she
just lied so Joffrey would like her."
"We all lie," her father said. "Or did you truly think I'd believe that Nymeria ran off?"
Arya blushed guiltily. "Jory promised not to tell."
"Jory kept his word," her father said with a smile. "There are some things I do not need to be told. Even
a blind man could see that wolf would never have left you willingly."
"We had to throw rocks," she said miserably. "I told her to run, to go be free, that I didn't want her


anymore. There were other wolves for her to play with, we heard them howling, and Jory said the woods
were full of game, so she'd have deer to hunt. Only she kept following, and finally we had to throw rocks.
I hit her twice. She whined and looked at me and I felt so 'shamed, but it was right, wasn't it? The queen
would have killed her."
"It was right," her father said. "And even the lie was . . . not without honor." He'd put Needle aside when
he went to Arya to embrace her. Now he took the blade up again and walked to the window, where he
stood for a moment, looking out across the courtyard. When he turned back, his eyes were thoughtful.
He seated himself on the window seat, Needle across his lap. "Arya, sit down. I need to try and explain
some things to you."
She perched anxiously on the edge of her bed. "You are too young to be burdened with all my cares,"
he told her, "but you are also a Stark of Winterfell. You know our words."
"Winter is coming, " Arya whispered.
"The hard cruel times," her father said. "We tasted them on the Trident, child, and when Bran fell. You
were born in the long summer, sweet one, you've never known anything else, but now the winter is truly
coming. Remember the sigil of our House, Arya."
"The direwolf," she said, thinking of Nymeria. She hugged her knees against her chest, suddenly afraid.
"Let me tell you something about wolves, child. When the snows fall and the white winds blow, the lone
wolf dies, but the pack survives. Summer is the time for squabbles. In winter, we must protect one
another, keep each other warm, share our strengths. So if you must hate, Arya, hate those who would
truly do us harm. Septa Mordane is a good woman, and Sansa . . . Sansa is your sister. You may be as
different as the sun and the moon, but the same blood flows through both your hearts. You need her, as
she needs you . . . and I need both of you, gods help me."
He sounded so tired that it made Arya sad. "I don't hate Sansa," she told him. "Not truly." It was only
half a lie.
"I do not mean to frighten you, but neither will I lie to you. We have
come to a dark dangerous place, child. This is not Winterfell. We have enemies who mean us ill. We
cannot fight a war among ourselves. This willfulness of yours, the running off, the angry words, the
disobedience . . . at home, these were only the summer games of a child. Here and now, with winter
soon upon us, that is a different matter. It is time to begin growing up."
"I will," Arya vowed. She had never loved him so much as she did in that instant. "I can be strong too. I
can be as strong as Robb."
He held Needle out to her, hilt first. "Here.,,
She looked at the sword with wonder in her eyes. For a moment she was afraid to touch it, afraid that if
she reached for it it would be snatched away again, but then her father said, "Go on, it's yours," and she
took it in her hand.
"I can keep it?" she said. "For true?"


"For true." He smiled. "If I took it away, no doubt I'd find a morningstar hidden under your pillow within
the fortnight. Try not to stab your sister, whatever the provocation."
"I won't. I promise." Arya clutched Needle tightly to her chest as her father took his leave.
The next morning, as they broke their fast, she apologized to Septa Mordane and asked for her pardon.
The septa peered at her suspiciously, but Father nodded.
Three days later, at midday, her father's steward Vayon Poole sent Arya to the Small Hall. The trestle
tables had been dismantled and the benches shoved against the walls. The hall seemed empty, until an
unfamiliar voice said, "You are late, boy." A slight man with a bald head and a great beak of a nose
stepped out of the shadows, holding a pair of slender wooden swords. "Tomorrow you will be here at
midday." He had an accent, the lilt of the Free Cities, Braavos perhaps, or Myr.
"Who are you?" Arya asked.
"I am your dancing master." He tossed her one of the wooden blades. She grabbed for it, missed, and
heard it clatter to the floor. "Tomorrow you will catch it. Now pick it up."
It was not just a stick, but a true wooden sword complete with grip and guard and pommel. Arya
picked it up and clutched it nervously with both hands, holding it out in front of her. It was heavier than it
looked, much heavier than Needle.
The bald man clicked his teeth together. "That is not the way, boy. This is not a greatsword that is
needing two hands to swing it. You will take the blade in one hand."
"It's too heavy," Arya said.
"It is heavy as it needs to be to make you strong, and for the balancing. A hollow inside is filled with
lead, just so. One hand now is all that is needing."
Arya took her right hand off the grip and wiped her sweaty palm on her pants. She held the sword in her
left hand. He seemed to approve. "The left is good. All is reversed, it will make your enemies more
awkward. Now you are standing wrong. Turn your body sideface, yes, so. You are skinny as the shaft of
a spear, do you know. That is good too, the target is smaller. Now the grip. Let me see." He moved
closer and peered at her hand, prying her fingers apart, rearranging them. "Just so, yes. Do not squeeze it
so tight, no, the grip must be deft, delicate."
"What if I drop it?" Arya said.
"The steel must be part of your arm," the bald man told her. "Can you drop part of your arm? No. Nine
years Syrio Forel was first sword to the Sealord of Braavos, he knows these things. Listen to him, boy."
It was the third time he had called her "boy." "I'm a girl," Arya objected.
"Boy, girl," Syrio Forel said. "You are a sword, that is all." He clicked his teeth together. "Just so, that is
the grip. You are not holding a battle-axe, you are holding a-"


'~--needle, " Arya finished for him, fiercely.
"Just so. Now we will begin the dance. Remember, child, this is not the iron dance of Westeros we are
learning, the knight's dance, hacking and hammering, no. This is the bravo's dance, the water dance, swift
and sudden. All men are made of water, do you know this? When you pierce them, the water leaks out
and they die." He took a step backward, raised his own wooden blade. "Now you will try to strike me.,,
Arya tried to strike him. She tried for four hours, until every muscle in her body was sore and aching,
while Syrio Forel clicked his teeth together and told her what to do.
The next day their real work began.
DAENERYS
"The Dothraki sea," Ser Jorah Mormont said as he reined to a halt beside her on the top of the ridge.
beneath them, the plain stretched out immense and empty, a vast flat expanse that reached to the distant
horizon and beyond. It was a sea, Dany thought. Past here, there were no hills, no mountains, no trees
nor cities nor roads, only the endless grasses, the tall blades rippling like waves when the winds blew.
"It's so green," she said.
"Here and now," Ser Jorah agreed. "You ought to see it when it blooms, all dark red flowers from
horizon to horizon, like a sea of blood. Come the dry season, and the world turns the color of old
bronze. And this is only hranna, child. There are a hundred kinds of grass out there, grasses as yellow as
lemon and as dark as indigo, blue grasses and orange grasses and grasses like rainbows. Down in the
Shadow Lands beyond Asshai, they say there are oceans of ghost grass, taller than a man on horseback
with stalks as pale as milkglass. It murders all other grass and glows in the dark with the spirits of the
damned. The Dothraki claim that someday ghost grass will cover the entire world, and then all life will
end."
That thought gave Dany the shivers. "I don't want to talk about that now," she said. "It's so beautiful
here, I don't want to think about everything dying."
"As you will, Khaleesi," Ser Jorah said respectfully.
She heard the sound of voices and turned to look behind her. She and Mormont had outdistanced the
rest of their party, and now the others were climbing the ridge below them. Her handmaid Irri and the
young archers of her khas were fluid as centaurs, but Viserys still struggled with the short stirrups and the
flat saddle. Her brother was miserable out here. He ought never have come. Magister Illyrio had urged
him to wait in Pentos, had offered him the hospitality of his manse, but Viserys would have none of it. He
would stay with Drogo until the debt had been paid, until he had the crown he had been promised. "And
if he tries to cheat me, he will learn to his sorrow what it means to wake the dragon," Viserys had vowed,
laying a hand on his borrowed sword. Illyrio had blinked at that and wished him good fortune.
Dany realized that she did not want to listen to any of her brother's complaints right now. The day was
too perfect. The sky was a deep blue, and high above them a hunting hawk circled. The grass sea
swayed and sighed with each breath of wind, the air was warm on her face, and Dany felt at peace. She


would not let Viserys spoil it.
"Wait here," Dany told Ser Jorah. "Tell them all to stay. Tell them I command it."
The knight smiled. Ser Jorah was not a handsome man. He had a neck and shoulders like a bull, and
coarse black hair covered his arms and chest so thickly that there was none left for his head. Yet his
smiles gave Dany comfort. "You are learning to talk like a queen, Daenerys."
"Not a queen," said Dany. "A khaleesi. " She wheeled her horse about and galloped down the ridge
alone.
The descent was steep and rocky, but Dany rode fearlessly, and the joy and the danger of it were a
song in her heart. All her life Viserys had told her she was a princess, but not until she rode her silver had
Daenerys Targaryen ever felt like one.
At first it had not come easy. The khalasar had broken camp the morning after her wedding, moving east
toward Vaes Dothrak, and by the third day Dany thought she was going to die. Saddle sores opened on
her bottom, hideous and bloody. Her thighs were chafed raw, her hands blistered from the reins, the
muscles of her legs and back so wracked with pain that she could scarcely sit. By the time dusk fell, her
handmaids would need to help her down from her mount.
Even the nights brought no relief. Khal Drogo ignored her when they rode, even as he had ignored her
during their wedding, and spent his evenings drinking with his warriors and bloodriders, racing his prize
horses, watching women dance and men die. Dany had no place
in these parts of his life. She was left to sup alone, or with Ser Jorah and her brother, and afterward to
cry herself to sleep. Yet every night, some time before the dawn, Drogo would come to her tent and
wake her in the dark, to ride her as relentlessly as he rode his stallion. He always took her from behind,
Dothraki fashion, for which Dany was grateful; that way her lord husband could not see the tears that wet
her face, and she could use her pillow to muffle her cries of pain. When he was done, he would close his
eyes and begin to snore softly and Dany would lie beside him, her body bruised and sore, hurting too
much for sleep.
Day followed day, and night followed night, until Dany knew she could not endure a moment longer. She
would kill herself rather than go on, she decided one night . . .
Yet when she slept that night, she dreamt the dragon dream again. Viserys was not in it this time. There
was only her and the dragon. Its scales were black as night, wet and slick with blood. Her blood, Dany
sensed. Its eyes were pools of molten magma, and when it opened its mouth, the flame came roaring out
in a hot jet. She could hear it singing to her, She opened her arms to the fire, embraced it, let it swallow
her whole, let it cleanse her and temper her and scour her clean. She could feel her flesh sear and
blacken and slough away, could feel her blood boil and turn to steam, and yet there was no pain. She felt
strong and new and fierce.
And the next day, strangely, she did not seem to hurt quite so much. It was as if the gods had heard her
and taken pity. Even her handmaids noticed the change. "Khaleesi, " Jhiqui said, "what is wrong? Are you
sick?"
"I was," she answered, standing over the dragon's eggs that Illyrio had given her when she wed. She


touched one, the largest of the three, running her hand lightly over the shelf. Black-and-scarlet, she
thought, like the dragon in my dream. The stone felt strangely warm beneath her fingers . . . or was she
still dreaming? She pulled her hand back nervously.
From that hour onward, each day was easier than the one before it. Her legs grew stronger; her blisters
burst and her hands grew callused; her soft thighs toughened, supple as leather.
The khal had commanded the handmaid Irri to teach Dany to ride in the Dothraki fashion, but it was the
filly who was her real teacher. The horse seemed to know her moods, as if they shared a single mind.
With every passing day, Dany felt surer in her seat. The Dothraki were a hard and unsentimental people,
and it was not their custom to name
their animals, so Dany thought of her only as the silver. She had never loved anything so much.
As the riding became less an ordeal, Dany began to notice the beauties of the land around her. She rode
at the head of the khalasar with Drogo and his bloodriders, so she came to each country fresh and
unspoiled. Behind them the great horde might tear the earth and muddy the rivers and send up clouds of
choking dust, but the fields ahead of them were always green and verdant.
They crossed the rolling hills of Norvos, past terraced farms and small villages where the townsfolk
watched anxiously from atop white stucco walls. They forded three wide placid rivers and a fourth that
was swift and narrow and treacherous, camped beside a high blue waterfall, skirted the tumbled ruins of
a vast dead city where ghosts were said to moan among blackened marble columns. They raced down
Valyrian roads a thousand years old and straight as a Dothraki arrow. For half a moon, they rode
through the Forest of Qohor, where the leaves made a golden canopy high above them, and the trunks of
the trees were as wide as city gates. There were great elk in that wood, and spotted tigers, and lemurs
with silver fur and huge purple eyes, but all fled before the approach of the khalasar and Dany got no
glimpse of them.
By then her agony was a fading memory. She still ached after a long day's riding, yet somehow the pain
had a sweetness to it now, and each morning she came willingly to her saddle, eager to know what
wonders waited for her in the lands ahead. She began to find pleasure even in her nights, and if she still
cried out when Drogo took her, it was not always in pain.
At the bottom of the ridge, the grasses rose around her, tall and supple. Dany slowed to a trot and rode
out onto the plain, losing herself in the green, blessedly alone. In the khalasar she was never alone. Khal
Drogo came to her only after the sun went down, but her handmaids fed her and bathed her and slept by
the door of her tent, Drogo's bloodriders and the men of her khas were never far, and her brother was an
unwelcome shadow, day and night. Dany could hear him on the top of the ridge, his voice shrill with
anger as he shouted at Ser Jorah. She rode on, submerging herself deeper in the Dothraki sea.
The green swallowed her up. The air was rich with the scents of earth and grass, mixed with the smell of
horseflesh and Dany's sweat and the oil in her hair. Dothraki smells. They seemed to belong here. Dany
breathed it all in, laughing. She had a sudden urge to feel the ground beneath her, to curl her toes in that
thick black soil. Swinging
down from her saddle, she let the silver graze while she pulled off her high boots.


Viserys came upon her as sudden as a summer storm, his horse rearing beneath him as he reined up too
hard. "You dare!" he screamed at her. "You give commands to me? To me?" He vaulted off the horse,
stumbling as he landed. His face was flushed as he struggled back to his feet. He grabbed her, shook her.
"Have you forgotten who you are? Look at you. Look at you!"
Dany did not need to look. She was barefoot, with oiled hair, wearing Dothraki riding leathers and a
painted vest given her as a bride gift. She looked as though she belonged here. Viserys was soiled and
stained in city silks and ringmail.
He was still screaming. "You do not command the dragon. Do you understand? I am the Lord of the
Seven Kingdoms, I will not hear orders from some horselord's slut, do you hear me?" His hand went
under her vest, his fingers digging painfully into her breast. "Do you hear me?"
Dany shoved him away, hard.
Viserys stared at her, his lilac eyes incredulous. She had never defied him. Never fought back. Rage
twisted his features. He would hurt her now, and badly, she knew that.
Crack.
The whip made a sound like thunder. The coil took Viserys around the throat and yanked him
backward. He went sprawling in the grass, stunned and choking. The Dothraki riders hooted at him as he
struggled to free himself. The one with the whip, young Jhogo, rasped a question. Dany did not
understand his words, but by then Irri was there, and Ser Jorah, and the rest of her khas. "Jhogo asks if
you would have him dead, Khaleesi, " Irri said.
"No," Dany replied. "No."
Jhogo understood that. One of the others barked out a comment, and the Dothraki laughed. Irri told her,
"Quaro thinks you should take an ear to teach him respect."
Her brother was on his knees, his fingers digging under the leather coils, crying incoherently, struggling
for breath. The whip was tight around his windpipe.
"Tell them I do not wish him harmed," Dany said.
Irri repeated her words in Dothraki. Jhogo gave a pull on the whip, yanking Viserys around like a
puppet on a string. He went sprawling again, freed from the leather embrace, a thin line of blood under
his chin where the whip had cut deep.
"I warned him what would happen, my lady," Ser Jorah Mormont said. "I told him to stay on the ridge,
as you commanded."
"I know you did," Dany replied, watching Viserys. He lay on the ground, sucking in air noisily, red-faced
and sobbing. He was a pitiful thing. He had always been a pitiful thing. Why had she never seen that
before? There was a hollow place inside her where her fear had been.
"Take his horse," Dany commanded Ser Jorah. Viserys gaped at her. He could not believe what he was


hearing; nor could Dany quite believe what she was saying. Yet the words came. "Let my brother walk
behind us back to the khalasar." Among the Dothraki, the man who does not ride was no man at all, the
lowest of the low, without honor or pride. "Let everyone see him as he is."
"No!" Viserys screamed. He turned to Ser Jorah, pleading in the Common Tongue with words the
horsemen would not understand. "Hit her, Mormont. Hurt her. Your king commands it. Kill these
Dothraki dogs and teach her."
The exile knight looked from Dany to her brother; she barefoot, with dirt between her toes and oil in her
hair, he with his silks and steel. Dany could see the decision on his face. "He shall walk, Khaleesi," he
said. He took her brother's horse in hand while Dany remounted her silver.
Viserys gaped at him, and sat down in the dirt. He kept his silence, but he would not move, and his eyes
were full of poison as they rode away. Soon he was lost in the tall grass. When they could not see him
anymore, Dany grew afraid. "Will he find his way back?" she asked Ser Jorah as they rode.
"Even a man as blind as your brother should be able to follow our trail," he replied.
"He is proud. He may be too shamed to come back."
Jorah laughed. "Where else should he go? If he cannot find the khalasar, the khalasar will most surely
find him. It is hard to drown in the Dothraki sea, child."
Dany saw the truth of that. The khalasar was like a city on the march, but it did not march blindly.
Always scouts ranged far ahead of the main column, alert for any sign of game or prey or enemies, while
outriders guarded their flanks. They missed nothing, not here, in this land, the place where they had come
from. These plains were a part of them . . . and of her, now.
"I hit him," she said, wonder in her voice. Now that it was over, it seemed like some strange dream that
she had dreamed. "Ser Jorah, do you think . . . he'll be so angry when he gets back She shivered. "I
woke the dragon, didn't IT'
Ser Jorah snorted. "Can you wake the dead, girl? Your brother Rhaegar was the last dragon, and he
died on the Trident. Viserys is less than the shadow of a snake."
His blunt words startled her. It seemed as though all the things she had always believed were suddenly
called into question. "You . . . you swore him your sword . . ."
"That I did, girl," Ser Jorah said. "And if your brother is the shadow of a snake, what does that make his
servants?" His voice was bitter.
"He is still the true king. He is . . ."
Jorah pulled up his horse and looked at her. "Truth now. Would you want to see Viserys sit a throne?"
Dany thought about that. "He would not be a very good king, would he?"
"There have been worse . . . but not many." The knight gave his heels to his mount and started off again.


Dany rode close beside him. "Still," she said, "the common people are waiting for him. Magister Illyrio
says they are sewing dragon banners and praying for Viserys to return from across the narrow sea to free
them."
"The common people pray for rain, healthy children, and a summer that never ends," Ser Jorah told her.
"It is no matter to them if the high lords play their game of thrones, so long as they are left in peace." He
gave a shrug. "They never are."
Dany rode along quietly for a time, working his words like a puzzle box. It went against everything that
Viserys had ever told her to think that the people could care so little whether a true king or a usurper
reigned over them. Yet the more she thought on Jorah's words, the more they rang of truth.
"What do you pray for, Ser Jorah?" she asked him.
"Home," he said. His voice was thick with longing.
"I pray for home too," she told him, believing it.
Ser Jorah laughed. "Look around you then, Khaleesi."
But it was not the plains Dany saw then. It was King's Landing and the great Red Keep that Aegon the
Conqueror had built. It was Dragonstone where she had been born. In her mind's eye they burned with a
thousand lights, a fire blazing in every window. In her mind's eye, all the doors were red.
"My brother will never take back the Seven Kingdoms," Dany said. She had known that for a long time,
she realized. She had known it all her life. Only she had never let herself say the words, even in a
whisper, but now she said them for Jorah Mormont and all the world to hear.
A GAML OF THRONLS 207
Ser Jorah gave her a measuring look. "You think not."
"He could not lead an army even if my lord husband gave him one," Dany said. "He has no coin and the
only knight who follows him reviles him as less than a snake. The Dothraki make mock of his weakness.
He will never take us home."
"Wise child." The knight smiled.
"I am no child," she told him fiercely. Her heels pressed into the sides of her mount, rousing the silver to
a gallop. Faster and faster she raced, leaving Jorah and Irri and the others far behind, the warm wind in
her hair and the setting sun red on her face. By the time she reached the khalasar, it was dusk.
The slaves had erected her tent by the shore of a spring-fed pool. She could hear rough voices from the
woven grass palace on the hill. Soon there would be laughter, when the men of her khas told the story of
what had happened in the grasses today. By the time Viserys came limping back among them, every
man, woman, and child in the camp would know him for a walker. There were no secrets in the khalasar.
Dany gave the silver over to the slaves for grooming and entered her tent. It was cool and dim beneath
the silk. As she let the door flap close behind her, Dany saw a finger of dusty red light reach out to touch
her dragon's eggs across the tent. For an instant a thousand droplets of scarlet flame swam before her
eyes. She blinked, and they were gone.


Stone, she told herself. They are only stone, even Illyrio said so, the dragons are all dead. She put her
palm against the black egg, fingers spread gently across the curve of the shell. The stone was warm.
Almost hot. "The sun," Dany whispered. "The sun warmed them as they rode."
She commanded her handmaids to prepare her a bath. Doreah built a fire outside the tent, while Irri and
Jhiqui fetched the big copper tub-another bride gift-from the packhorses and carried water from the
pool. When the bath was steaming, Irri helped her into it and climbed in after her.
"Have you ever seen a dragon?" she asked as Irri scrubbed her back and Jhiqui sluiced sand from her
hair. She had heard that the first dragons had come from the east, from the Shadow Lands beyond
Asshai and the islands of the Jade Sea. Perhaps some were still living there, in realms strange and wild.
"Dragons are gone, Khaleesi," Irri said.
"Dead," agreed Jhiqui. "Long and long ago."
Viserys had told her that the last Targaryen dragons had died no more than a century and a half ago,
during the reign of Aegon 111, who
was called the Dragonbane. That did not seem so long ago to Dany. "Everywhere?" she said,
disappointed. "Even in the east?" Magic had died in the west when the Doom fell on Valyria and the
Lands of the Long Summer, and neither spell-forged steel nor stormsingers nor dragons could hold it
back, but Dany had always heard that the east was different. It was said that manticores prowled the
islands of the Jade Sea, that basilisks infested the jungles of Yi Ti, that spellsingers, warlocks, and
aeromancers practiced their arts openly in Asshai, while shadowbinders and bloodmages worked terrible
sorceries in the black of night. Why shouldn't there be dragons too?
"No dragon," Irri said. "Brave men kill them, for dragon terrible evil beasts. It is known."
"It is known," agreed Jhiqui.
"A trader from Qarth once told me that dragons came from the moon," blond Doreah said as she
warmed a towel over the fire. Jhiqui and Irri were of an age with Dany, Dothraki girls taken as slaves
when Drogo destroyed their father's khalasar. Doreah was older, almost twenty. Magister Illyrio had
found her in a pleasure house in Lys.
Silvery-wet hair tumbled across her eyes as Dany turned her head, curious. "The moon?"
"He told me the moon was an egg, Khaleesi," the Lysene girl said. "Once there were two moons in the
sky, but one wandered too close to the sun and cracked from the heat. A thousand thousand dragons
poured forth, and drank the fire of the sun. That is why dragons breathe flame. One day the other moon
will kiss the sun too, and then it will crack and the dragons will return."
The two Dothraki girls giggled and laughed. "You are foolish strawhead slave," Irri said. "Moon is no
egg. Moon is god, woman wife of sun. It is known."
"It is known," Jhiqui agreed.


Dany's skin was flushed and pink when she climbed from the tub. Jhiqui laid her down to oil her body
and scrape the dirt from her pores. Afterward Irri sprinkled her with spiceflower and cinnamon. While
Doreah brushed her hair until it shone like spun silver, she thought about the moon, and eggs, and
dragons.
Her supper was a simple meal of fruit and cheese and fry bread, with a jug of honeyed wine to wash it
down. "Doreah, stay and eat with me," Dany commanded when she sent her other handmaids away. The
Lysene girl had hair the color of honey, and eyes like the summer sky.
She lowered those eyes when they were alone. "You honor me, Khaleesi, " she said, but it was no
honor, only service. Long after the moon had risen, they sat together, talking.
That night, when Khal Drogo came, Dany was waiting for him. He stood in the door of her tent and
looked at her with surprise. She rose slowly and opened her sleeping silks and let them fall to the ground.
"This night we must go outside, my lord," she told him, for the Dothraki believed that all things of
importance in a man's life must be done beneath the open sky.
Khal Drogo followed her out into the moonlight, the bells in his hair tinkling softly. A few yards from her
tent was a bed of soft grass, and it was there that Dany drew him down. When he tried to turn her over,
she put a hand on his chest. "No," she said. "This night I would look on your face."
There is no privacy in the heart of the khalasar. Dany felt the eyes on her as she undressed him, heard
the soft voices as she did the things that Doreah had told her to do. It was nothing to her. Was she not
khaleesi? His were the only eyes that mattered, and when she mounted him she saw something there that
she had never seen before. She rode him as fiercely as ever she had ridden her silver, and when the
moment of his pleasure came, Khal Drogo called out her name.
They were on the far side of the Dothraki sea when Jhiqui brushed the soft swell of Dany's stomach with
her fingers and said, "Khaleesi, you are with child."
"I know," Dany told her.
It was her fourteenth name day.
BRAN
In the yard below, Rickon ran with the wolves.
Bran watched from his window seat. Wherever the boy went,
Grey Wind was there first, loping ahead to cut him off, until Rickon saw him, screamed in delight, and
went pelting off in another direction. Shaggydog ran at his heels, spinning and snapping if the other wolves
came too close. His fur had darkened until he was all black, and his eyes were green fire. Bran's Summer
came last. He was silver and smoke, with eyes of yellow gold that saw all there was to see. Smaller than
Grey Wind, and more wary. Bran thought he was the smartest of the litter. He could hear his brother's
breathless laughter as Rickon dashed across the hardpacked earth on little baby legs.


His eyes stung. He wanted to be down there, laughing and running. Angry at the thought, Bran knuckled
away the tears before they could fall. His eighth name day had come and gone. He was almost a man
grown now, too old to cry.
"It was just a lie," he said bitterly, remembering the crow from his dream. "I can't fly. I can't even run."
"Crows are all liars," Old Nan agreed, from the chair where she sat doing her needlework. "I know a
story about a crow."
"I don't want any more stories," Bran snapped, his voice petulant. He had liked Old Nan and her stories
once. Before. But it was different now. They left her with him all day now, to watch over him and
clean him and keep him from being lonely, but she just made it worse. "I hate your stupid stories."
The old woman smiled at him toothlessly. "My stories? No, my little lord, not mine. The stories are,
before me and after me, before you too."
She was a very ugly old woman, Bran thought spitefully; shrunken and wrinkled, almost blind, too weak
to climb stairs, with only a few wisps of white hair left to cover a mottled pink scalp. No one really knew
how old she was, but his father said she'd been called Old Nan even when he was a boy. She was the
oldest person in Winterfell for certain, maybe the oldest person in the Seven Kingdoms. Nan had come
to the castle as a wet nurse for a Brandon Stark whose mother had died birthing him. He had been an
older brother of Lord Rickard, Bran's grandfather, or perhaps a younger brother, or a brother to Lord
Rickard's father. Sometimes Old Nan told it one way and sometimes another. In all the stories the little
boy died at three of a summer chill, but Old Nan stayed on at Winterfell with her own children. She had
lost both her sons to the war when King Robert won the throne, and her grandson was killed on the walls
of Pyke during Balon Greyjoy's rebellion. Her daughters had long ago married and moved away and
died. All that was left of her own blood was Hodor, the simpleminded giant who worked in the stables,
but Old Nan just lived on and on, doing her needlework and telling her stories.
"I don't care whose stories they are," Bran told her, "I hate them." He didn't want stories and he didn't
want Old Nan. He wanted his mother and father. He wanted to go running with Summer loping beside
him. He wanted to climb the broken tower and feed corn to the crows. He wanted to ride his pony again
with his brothers. He wanted it to be the way it had been before.
"I know a story about a boy who hated stories," Old Nan said with her stupid little smile, her needles
moving all the while, click click click, until Bran was ready to scream at her.
It would never be the way it had been, he knew. The crow had tricked him into flying, but when he
woke up he was broken and the world was changed. They had all left him, his father and his mother and
his sisters and even his bastard brother Jon. His father had promised he would ride a real horse to King's
Landing, but they'd gone without him. Maester Luwin had sent a bird after Lord Eddard with a message,
and another to Mother and a third to Jon on the Wall, but there had been no answers. "Ofttimes the birds
are lost, child," the maester had told him. "There's many a mile and many a hawk between here and
King's Landing, the message may not have reached them."
Yet to Bran it felt as if they had all died while he had slept ... or perhaps Bran had died, and they had


forgotten him. Jory and Ser Rodrik and Vayon Poole had gone too, and Hullen and Harwin and Fat Tom
and a quarter of the guard.
Only Robb and baby Rickon were still here, and Robb was changed. He was Robb the Lord now, or
trying to be. He wore a real sword and never smiled. His days were spent drilling the guard and
practicing his swordplay, making the yard ring with the sound of steel as Bran watched forlornly from his
window. At night he closeted himself with Maester Luwin, talking or going over account books.
Sometimes he would ride out with Hallis Mollen and be gone for days at a time, visiting distant holdfasts.
Whenever he was away more than a day, Rickon would cry and ask Bran if Robb was ever coming
back. Even when he was home at Winterfell, Robb the Lord seemed to have more time for Hallis Mollen
and Theon Greyjoy than he ever did for his brothers.
"I could tell you the story about Brandon the Builder," Old Nan said. "That was always your favorite."
Thousands and thousands of years ago, Brandon the Builder had raised Winterfell, and some said the
Wall. Bran knew the story, but it had never been his favorite. Maybe one of the other Brandons had
liked that story. Sometimes Nan would talk to him as if he were her Brandon, the baby she had nursed all
those years ago, and sometimes she confused him with his uncle Brandon, who was killed by the Mad
King before Bran was even born. She had lived so long, Mother had told him once, that all the Brandon
Starks had become one person in her head.
"That's not my favorite," he said. "My favorites were the scary ones." He heard some sort of commotion
outside and turned back to the window. Rickon was running across the yard toward the gatehouse, the
wolves following him, but the tower faced the wrong way for Bran to see what was happening. He
smashed a fist on his thigh in frustration and felt nothing.
"Oh, my sweet summer child," Old Nan said quietly, "what do you know of fear? Fear is for the winter,
my little lord, when the snows fall a hundred feet deep and the ice wind comes howling out of the north.
Fear is for the long night, when the sun hides its face for years at a time, and little children are born and
live and die all in darkness while the direwolves grow gaunt and hungry, and the white walkers move
through the woods."
"You mean the Others," Bran said querulously.
"The Others," Old Nan agreed. "Thousands and thousands of years
A GAML OF THRONLS 213
ago, a winter fell that was cold and hard and endless beyond all memory of man. There came a night that
lasted a generation, and kings shivered and died in their castles even as the swineherds in their hovels.
Women smothered their children rather than see them starve, and cried, and felt their tears freeze on their
cheeks." Her voice and her needles fell silent, and she glanced up at Bran with pale, filmy eyes and
asked, "So, child. This is the sort of story you like?"
"Well," Bran said reluctantly, "yes, only . . .
Old Nan nodded. "In that darkness, the Others came for the first time," she said as her needles went
click click click. "They were cold things, dead things, that hated iron and fire and the touch of the sun,
and every creature with hot blood in its veins. They swept over holdfasts and cities and kingdoms, felled
heroes and armies by the score, riding their pale dead horses and leading hosts of the slain. All the
swords of men could not stay their advance, and even maidens and suckling babes found no pity in them.


They hunted the maids through frozen forests, and fed their dead servants on the flesh of human children."
Her voice had dropped very low, almost to a whisper, and Bran found himself leaning forward to listen.
"Now these were the days before the Andals came, and long before the women fled across the narrow
sea from the cities of the Rhoyne, and the hundred kingdoms of those times were the kingdoms of the
First Men, who had taken these lands from the children of the forest. Yet here and there in the fastness of
the woods the children still lived in their wooden cities and hollow hills, and the faces in the trees kept
watch. So as cold and death filled the earth, the last hero determined to seek out the children, in the
hopes that their ancient magics could win back what the armies of men had lost. He set out into the dead
lands with a sword, a horse, a dog, and a dozen companions. For years he searched, until he despaired
of ever finding the children of the forest in their secret cities. One by one his friends died, and his horse,
and finally even his dog, and his sword froze so hard the blade snapped when he tried to use it. And the
Others smelled the hot blood in him, and came silent on his trail, stalking him with packs of pale white
spiders big as hounds-"
The door opened with a bang, and Bran's heart leapt up into his mouth in sudden fear, but it was only
Maester Luwin, with Hodor looming in the stairway behind him. "Hodor!" the stableboy announced, as
was his custom, smiling hugely at them all.
Maester Luwin was not smiling. "We have visitors," he announced, "and your presence is required,
Bran."
"I'm listening to a story now," Bran complained.
"Stories wait, my little lord, and when you come back to them, why, there they are," Old Nan said.
"Visitors are not so patient, and ofttimes they bring stories of their own."
"Who is it?" Bran asked Maester Luwin.
"Tyrion Lannister, and some men of the Night's Watch, with word from your brother Jon. Robb is
meeting with them now. Hodor, will you help Bran down to the hall?"
"Hodor!" Hodor agreed happily. He ducked to get his great shaggy head under the door. Hodor was
nearly seven feet tall. It was hard to believe that he was the same blood as Old Nan. Bran wondered if
he would shrivel up as small as his great-grandmother when he was old. It did not seem likely, even if
Hodor lived to be a thousand.
Hodor lifted Bran as easy as if he were a bale of hay, and cradled him against his massive chest. He
always smelled faintly of horses, but it was not a bad smell. His arms were thick with muscle and matted
with brown hair. "Hodor," he said again. Theon Greyjoy had once commented that Hodor did not know
much, but no one could doubt that he knew his name. Old Nan had cackled like a hen when Bran told
her that, and confessed that Hodor's real name was Walder. No one knew where "Hodor" had come
from, she said, but when he started saying it, they started calling him by it. It was the only word he had.
They left Old Nan in the tower room with her needles and her memories. Hodor hummed tunelessly as
he carried Bran down the steps and through the gallery, with Maester Luwin following behind, hurrying to
keep up with the stableboy's long strides.


Robb was seated in Father's high seat, wearing ringmail and boiled leather and the stern face of Robb
the Lord. Theon Greyjoy and Hallis Mollen stood behind him. A dozen guardsmen lined the grey stone
walls beneath tall narrow windows. In the center of the room the dwarf stood with his servants, and four
strangers in the black of the Night's Watch. Bran could sense the anger in the hall the moment that Hodor
carried him through the doors.
"Any man of the Night's Watch is welcome here at Winterfell for as long as he wishes to stay," Robb
was saying with the voice of Robb the Lord. His sword was across his knees, the steel bare for all the
world to see. Even Bran knew what it meant to greet a guest with an unsheathed sword.
"Any man of the Night's Watch," the dwarf repeated, "but not me, do I take your meaning, boy?"
Robb stood and pointed at the little man with his sword. "I am the
lord here while my mother and father are away, Lannister. I am not your boy."
"If you are a lord, you might learn a lord's courtesy," the little man replied, ignoring the sword point in his
face. "Your bastard brother has all your father's graces, it would seem."
"Jon, " Bran gasped out from Hodor's arms.
The dwarf turned to look at him. "So it is true, the boy lives. I could scarce believe it. You Starks are
hard to kill."
"You Lannisters had best remember that," Robb said, lowering his sword. "Hodor, bring my brother
here."
"Hodor," Hodor said, and he trotted forward smiling and set Bran in the high seat of the Starks, where
the Lords of Winterfell had sat since the days when they called themselves the Kings in the North. The
seat was cold stone, polished smooth by countless bottoms; the carved heads of direwolves snarled on
the ends of its massive arms. Bran clasped them as he sat, his useless legs dangling. The great seat made
him feel half a baby.
Robb put a hand on his shoulder. "You said you had business with Bran. Well, here he is, Lannister."
Bran was uncomfortably aware of Tyrion Lannister's eyes. One was black and one was green, and both
were looking at him, studying him, weighing him. "I am told you were quite the climber, Bran," the little
man said at last. "Tell me, how is it you happened to fall that day?"
"I never," Bran insisted. He never fell, never never never.
"The child does not remember anything of the fall, or the climb that came before it," said Maester Luwin
gently.
"Curious," said Tyrion Lannister.
"My brother is not here to answer questions, Lannister," Robb said curtly. "Do your business and be on
your way."


"I have a gift for you," the dwarf said to Bran. "Do you like to ride, boy?"
Maester Luwin came forward. "My lord, the child has lost the use of his legs. He cannot sit a horse."
"Nonsense," said Lannister. "With the right horse and the right saddle, even a cripple can ride."
The word was a knife through Bran's heart. He felt tears come unbidden to his eyes. "I'm not a cripple!"
"Then I am not a dwarf," the dwarf said with a twist of his mouth. "My father will rejoice to hear it."
Greyjoy laughed.
"What sort of horse and saddle are you suggesting?" Maester Luwin asked.
"A smart horse," Lannister replied. "The boy cannot use his legs to
command the animal, so you must shape the horse to the rider, teach it to respond to the reins, to the
voice. I would begin with an unbroken yearling, with no old training to be unlearned." He drew a rolled
paper from his belt. "Give this to your saddler. He will provide the rest."
Maester Luwin took the paper from the dwarfs hand, curious as a small grey squirrel. He unrolled it,
studied it. "I see. You draw nicely, my lord. Yes, this ought to work. I should have thought of this
myself."
"It came easier to me, Maester. It is not terribly unlike my own saddles."
"Will I truly be able to ride?" Bran asked. He wanted to believe them, but he was afraid. Perhaps it was
just another lie. The crow had promised him that he could fly.
"You will," the dwarf told him. "And I swear to you, boy, on horseback you will be as tall as any of
them."
Robb Stark seemed puzzled. "Is this some trap, Lannister? What's Bran to you? Why should you want
to help him?"
"Your brother Jon asked it of me. And I have a tender spot in my heart for cripples and bastards and
broken things." Tyrion Lannister placed a hand over his heart and grinned.
The door to the yard flew open. Sunlight came streaming across the hall as Rickon burst in, breathless.
The direwolves were with him. The boy stopped by the door, wide-eyed, but the wolves came on. Their
eyes found Lannister, or perhaps they caught his scent. Summer began to growl first. Grey Wind picked
it up. They padded toward the little man, one from the right and one from the left.
"The wolves do not like your smell, Lannister," Theon Greyioy commented.
"Perhaps it's time I took my leave," Tyrion said. He took a step backward . . . and Shaggydog came out
of the shadows behind him, snarling. Lannister recoiled, and Summer lunged at him from the other side.
He reeled away, unsteady on his feet, and Grey Wind snapped at his arm, teeth ripping at his sleeve and
tearing loose a scrap of cloth.


"No!" Bran shouted from the high seat as Lannister's men reached for their steel. "Summer, here.
Summer, to me!"
The direwolf heard the voice, glanced at Bran, and again at Lannister. He crept backward, away from
the little man, and settled down below Bran's dangling feet.
Robb had been holding his breath. He let it out with a sigh and called, "Grey Wind." His direwolf moved
to him, swift and silent. Now there was only Shaggydog, rumbling at the small man, his eyes burning like
green fire.
"Rickon, call him," Bran shouted to his baby brother, and Rickon remembered himself and screamed,
"Home, Shaggy, home now." The black wolf gave Lannister one final snarl and bounded off to Rickon,
who hugged him tightly around the neck.
Tyrion Lannister undid his scarf, mopped at his brow, and said in a flat voice, "How interesting."
"Are you well, my lord?" asked one of his men, his sword in hand. He glanced nervously at the
direwolves as he spoke.
"My sleeve is torn and my breeches are unaccountably damp, but nothing was harmed save my dignity."
Even Robb looked shaken. "The wolves . . . I don't know why they did that . . ."
"No doubt they mistook me for dinner." Lannister bowed stiffly to Bran. "I thank you for calling them off,
young ser. I promise you, they would have found me quite indigestible. And now I will be leaving, truly."
"A moment, my lord," Maester Luwin said. He moved to Robb and they huddled close together,
whispering. Bran tried to hear what they were saying, but their voices were too low.
Robb Stark finally sheathed his sword. "I . . . I may have been hasty with you," he said. "You've done
Bran a kindness, and, well . . ." Robb composed himself with an effort. "The hospitality of Winterfell is
yours if you wish it, Lannister."
"Spare me your false courtesies, boy. You do not love me and you do not want me here. I saw an inn
outside your walls, in the winter town. I'll find a bed there, and both of us will sleep easier. For a few
coppers I may even find a comely wench to warm the sheets for me." He spoke to one of the black
brothers, an old man with a twisted back and a tangled beard. "Yoren, we go south at daybreak. You
will find me on the road, no doubt." With that he made his exit, struggling across the hall on his short legs,
past Rickon and out the door. His men followed.
The four of the Night's Watch remained. Robb turned to them uncertainly. "I have had rooms prepared,
and you'll find no lack of hot water to wash off the dust of the road. I hope you will honor us at table
tonight." He spoke the words so awkwardly that even Bran took note; it was a speech he had learned,
not words from the heart, but the black brothers thanked him all the same.
Summer followed them up the tower steps as Hodor carried Bran back to his bed. Old Nan was asleep
in her chair. Hodor said "Hodor," gathered up his great-grandmother, and carried her off, snoring softly,
while Bran lay thinking. Robb had promised that he could feast with


the Night's Watch in the Great Hall. "Summer," he called. The wolf bounded up on the bed. Bran
hugged him so hard he could feel the hot breath on his cheek. "I can ride now," he whispered to his
friend. "We can go hunting in the woods soon, wait and see." After a time he slept.
In his dream he was climbing again, pulling himself up an ancient windowless tower, his fingers forcing
themselves between blackened stones, his feet scrabbling for purchase. Higher and higher he climbed,
through the clouds and into the night sky, and still the tower rose before him. When he paused to look
down, his head swam dizzily and he felt his fingers slipping. Bran cried out and clung for dear life. The
earth was a thousand miles beneath him and he could not fly. He could not fly. He waited until his heart
had stopped pounding, until he could breathe, and he began to climb again. There was no way to go but
up. Far above him, outlined against a vast pale moon, he thought he could see the shapes of gargoyles.
His arms were sore and aching, but he dared not rest. He forced himself to climb faster. The gargoyles
watched him ascend. Their eyes glowed red as hot coals in a brazier. Perhaps once they had been lions,
but now they were twisted and grotesque. Bran could hear them whispering to each other in soft stone
voices terrible to hear. He must not listen, he told himself, he must not hear, so long as he did not hear
them he was safe. But when the gargoyles pulled themselves loose from the stone and padded down the
side of the tower to where Bran clung, he knew he was not safe after all. "I didn't hear," he wept as they
came closer and closer, "I didn't, I didn't."
He woke gasping, lost in darkness, and saw a vast shadow looming over him. "I didn't hear," he
whispered, trembling in fear, but then the shadow said "Hodor," and lit the candle by the bedside, and
Bran sighed with relief.
Hodor washed the sweat from him with a warm, damp cloth and dressed him with deft and gentle hands.
When it was time, he carried him down to the Great Hall, where a long trestle table had been set up near
the fire. The lord's seat at the head of the table had been left empty, but Robb sat to the right of it, with
Bran across from him. They ate suckling pig that night, and pigeon pie, and turnips soaking in butter, and
afterward the cook had promised honeycombs. Summer snatched table scraps from Bran's hand, while
Grey Wind and Shaggydog fought over a bone in the corner. Winterfell's dogs would not come near the
hall now. Bran had found that strange at first, but he was growing used to it.
Yoren was senior among the black brothers, so the steward had seated him between Robb and Maester
Luwin. The old man had a sour
smell, as if he had not washed in a long time. He ripped at the meat with his teeth, cracked the ribs to
suck out the marrow from the bones, and shrugged at the mention of Jon Snow. "Ser Alliser's bane," he
grunted, and two of his companions shared a laugh that Bran did not understand. But when Robb asked
for news of their uncle Benjen, the black brothers grew ominously quiet.
"What is it?" Bran asked.
Yoren wiped his fingers on his vest. "There's hard news, m'lords, and a cruel way to pay you for your
meat and mead, but the man as asks the question must bear the answer. Stark's gone."
One of the other men said, "The Old Bear sent him out to look for Waymar Royce, and he's late
returning, my lord."


"Too long," Yoren said. "Most like he's dead."
"My uncle is not dead," Robb Stark said loudly, anger in his tones. He rose from the bench and laid his
hand on the hilt of his sword. "Do you hear me? My uncle is not dead!" His voice rang against the stone
walls, and Bran was suddenly afraid.
Old sour-smelling Yoren looked up at Robb, unimpressed. "Whatever you say, m'lord," he said. He
sucked at a piece of meat between his teeth.
The youngest of the black brothers shifted uncomfortably in his seat. "There's not a man on the Wall
knows the haunted forest better than Benjen Stark. He'll find his way back."
"Well," said Yoren, "maybe he will and maybe he won't. Good men have gone into those woods before,
and never come out."
All Bran could think of was Old Nan's story of the Others and the last hero, hounded through the white
woods by dead men and spiders big as hounds. He was afraid for a moment, until he remembered how
that story ended. "The children will help him," he blurted, "the children of the forest!"
Theon Greyjoy sniggered, and Maester Luwin said, "Bran, the children of the forest have been dead and
gone for thousands of years. All that is left of them are the faces in the trees."
"Down here, might be that's true, Maester," Yoren said, "but up past the Wall, who's to say? Up there, a
man can't always tell what's alive and what's dead."
That night, after the plates had been cleared, Robb carried Bran up to bed himself. Grey Wind led the
way, and Summer came close behind. His brother was strong for his age, and Bran was as light as a
bundle of rags, but the stairs were steep and dark, and Robb was breathing hard by the time they
reached the top.
He put Bran into bed, covered him with blankets, and blew out the
candle. For a time Robb sat beside him in the dark. Bran wanted to talk to him, but he did not know
what to say. "We'll find a horse for you, I promise," Robb whispered at last.
"Are they ever coming back?" Bran asked him.
"Yes," Robb said with such hope in his voice that Bran knew he was hearing his brother and not just
Robb the Lord. "Mother will be home soon. Maybe we can ride out to meet her when she comes.
Wouldn't that surprise her, to see you ahorse?" Even in the dark room, Bran could feel his brother's
smile. "And afterward, we'll ride north to see the Wall. We won't even tell Jon we're coming, we'll just be
there one day, you and me. It will be an adventure."
"An adventure," Bran repeated wistfully. He heard his brother sob. The room was so dark he could not
see the tears on Robb's face, so he reached out and found his hand. Their fingers twined together.
EDDARD


"Lord Arryn's death was a great sadness for all of us, my lord," Grand Maester Pycelle said. "I would be
more than happy to tell you what I can of the manner of his passing. Do be seated. Would you care for
refreshments? Some dates, perhaps? I have some very fine persimmons as well. Wine no longer agrees
with my digestion, I fear, but I can offer you a cup of iced milk, sweetened with honey. I find it most
refreshing in this heat."
There was no denying the heat; Ned could feel the silk tunic clinging to his chest. Thick, moist air
covered the city like a damp woolen blanket, and the riverside had grown unruly as the poor fled their
hot, airless warrens to jostle for sleeping places near the water, where the only breath of wind was to be
found. "That would be most kind," Ned said, seating himself.
Pycelle lifted a tiny silver bell with thumb and forefinger and tinkled it gently. A slender young serving girl
hurried into the solar. "Iced milk for the King's Hand and myself, if you would be so kind, child. Well
sweetened."
As the girl went to fetch their drinks, the Grand Maester knotted his fingers together and rested his
hands on his stomach. "The smallfolk say that the last year of summer is always the hottest. It is not so,
yet ofttimes it feels that way, does it not? On days like this, I envy you northerners your summer snows."
The heavy jeweled chain
around the old man's neck chinked softly as he shifted in his seat. "To be sure, King Maekar's summer
was hotter than this one, and near as long. There were fools, even in the Citadel, who took that to mean
that the Great Summer had come at last, the summer that never ends, but in the seventh year it broke
suddenly, and we had a short autumn and a terrible long winter. Still, the heat was fierce while it lasted.
Oldtown steamed and sweltered by day and came alive only by night. We would walk in the gardens by
the river and argue about the gods. I remember the smells of those nights, my lord-perfume and sweat,
melons ripe to bursting, peaches and pomegranates, nightshade and moonbloom. I was a young man
then, still forging my chain. The heat did not exhaust me as it does now." Pycelle's eyes were so heavily
lidded he looked half-asleep. "My pardons, Lord Eddard. You did not come to hear foolish meanderings
of a summer forgotten before your father was born. Forgive an old man his wanderings, if you would.
Minds are like swords, I do fear. The old ones go to rust. Ah, and here is our milk." The serving girl
placed the tray between them, and Pycelle gave her a smile. "Sweet child." He lifted a cup, tasted,
nodded. "Thank you. You may go."
When the girl had taken her leave, Pycelle peered at Ned through pale, rheumy eyes. "Now where were
we? Oh, yes. You asked about Lord Arryn . . ."
"I did." Ned sipped politely at the iced milk. It was pleasantly cold, but oversweet to his taste.
"If truth be told, the Hand had not seemed quite himself for some time," Pycelle said. "We had sat
together on council many a year, he and 1, and the signs were there to read, but I put them down to the
great burdens he had borne so faithfully for so long. Those broad shoulders were weighed down by all
the cares of the realm, and more besides. His son was ever sickly, and his lady wife so anxious that she
would scarcely let the boy out of her sight. It was enough to weary even a strong man, and the Lord Jon
was not young. Small wonder if he seemed melancholy and tired. Or so I thought at the time. Yet now I
am less certain." He gave a ponderous shake of his head.
"What can you tell me of his final illness?"


The Grand Maester spread his hands in a gesture of helpless sorrow. "He came to me one day asking
after a certain book, as hale and healthy as ever, though it did seem to me that something was troubling
him deeply. The next morning he was twisted over in pain, too sick to rise from bed. Maester Colemon
thought it was a chill on the stomach. The weather had been hot, and the Hand often iced his wine, which
can upset the digestion. When Lord Jon continued to weaken, I went to him myself, but the gods did not
grant me the power to save him."
"I have heard that you sent Maester Colemon away."
The Grand Maester's nod was as slow and deliberate as a glacier. "I did, and I fear the Lady Lysa will
never forgive me that. Maybe I was wrong, but at the time I thought it best. Maester Colemon is like a
son to me, and I yield to none in my esteem for his abilities, but he is young, and the young ofttimes do
not comprehend the frailty of an older body. He was purging Lord Arryn with wasting potions and
pepper juice, and I feared he might kill him."
"Did Lord Arryn say anything to you during his final hours?"
Pycelle wrinkled his brow. "In the last stage of his fever, the Hand called out the name Robert several
times, but whether he was asking for his son or for the king I could not say. Lady Lysa would not permit
the boy to enter the sickroom, for fear that he too might be taken ill. The king did come, and he sat
beside the bed for hours, talking and joking of times long past in hopes of raising Lord Jon's spirits. His
love was fierce to see."
"Was there nothing else? No final words?"
"When I saw that all hope had fled, I gave the Hand the milk of the poppy, so he should not suffer. Just
before he closed his eyes for the last time, he whispered something to the king and his lady wife, a
blessing for his son. The seed is strong, he said. At the end, his speech was too slurred to comprehend.
Death did not come until the next morning, but Lord Jon was at peace after that. He never spoke again."
Ned took another swallow of milk, trying not to gag on the sweetness of it. "Did it seem to you that there
was anything unnatural about Lord Arryn's death?"
"Unnatural?" The aged maester's voice was thin as a whisper. "No, I could not say so. Sad, for a
certainty. Yet in its own way, death is the most natural thing of all, Lord Eddard. Jon Arryn rests easy
now, his burdens lifted at last."
"This illness that took him," said Ned. "Had you ever seen its like before, in other men?"
"Near forty years I have been Grand Maester of the Seven Kingdoms," Pycelle replied. "Under our
good King Robert, and Aerys Targaryen before him, and his father Jaehaerys the Second before him,
and even for a few short months under Jaehaerys's father, Aegon the Fortunate, the Fifth of His Name. I
have seen more of illness than I care to remember, my lord. I will tell you this: Every case is different, and
every case is alike. Lord Jon's death was no stranger than any other."
224 GEORGE RA. MARTIN


"His wife thought otherwise."
The Grand Maester nodded. "I recall now, the widow is sister to your own noble wife. If an old man
may be forgiven his blunt speech, let me say that grief can derange even the strongest and most
disciplined of minds, and the Lady Lysa was never that. Since her last stillbirth, she has seen enemies in
every shadow, and the death of her lord husband left her shattered and lost."
"So you are quite certain that Jon Arryn died of a sudden illness?"
"I am," Pycelle replied gravely. "If not illness, my good lord, what else could it be?"
"Poison," Ned suggested quietly.
Pycelle's sleepy eyes flicked open. The aged maester shifted uncomfortably in his seat. "A disturbing
thought. We are not the Free Cities, where such things are common. Grand Maester Aethelmure wrote
that all men carry murder in their hearts, yet even so, the poisoner is beneath contempt." He fell silent for
a moment, his eyes lost in thought. "What you suggest is possible, my lord, yet I do not think it likely.
Every hedge maester knows the common poisons, and Lord Arryn displayed none of the signs. And the
Hand was loved by all. What sort of monster in man's flesh would dare to murder such a noble lord?"
"I have heard it said that poison is a woman's weapon."
Pycelle stroked his beard thoughtfully. "It is said. Women, cravens . . . and eunuchs." He cleared his
throat and spat a thick glob of phelm onto the rushes. Above them, a raven cawed loudly in the rookery.
"The Lord Varys was born a slave in Lys, did you know? Put not your trust in spiders, my lord."
That was scarcely anything Ned needed to be told; there was something about Varys that made his flesh
crawl. "I will remember that, Maester. And I thank you for your help. I have taken enough of your time."
He stood.
Grand Maester Pycelle pushed himself up from his chair slowly and escorted Ned to the door. "I hope I
have helped in some small way to put your mind at ease. If there is any other service I might perform, you
need only ask."
"One thing," Ned told him. "I should be curious to examine the book that you lent Jon the day before he
fell ill."
"I fear you would find it of little interest," Pycelle said. "It was a ponderous tome by Grand Maester
Malleon on the lineages of the great houses."
"Still, I should like to see it."
The old man opened the door. "As you wish. I have it here some-
A GAML OF THRONLS 225
where. When I find it, I shall have it sent to your chambers straightaway.,,
"You have been most courteous," Ned told him. Then, almost as an afterthought, he said, "One last
question, if you would be so kind. You mentioned that the king was at Lord Arryn's bedside when he
died. I wonder, was the queen with him?"


"Why, no," Pycelle said. "She and the children were making the journey to Casterly Rock, in company
with her father. Lord Tywin had brought a retinue to the city for the tourney on Prince Joffrey's name
day, no doubt hoping to see his son Jaime win the champion's crown. In that he was sadly disappointed.
It fell to me to send the queen word of Lord Arryn's sudden death. Never have I sent off a bird with a
heavier heart."
"Dark wings, dark words," Ned murmured. It was a proverb Old Nan had taught him as a boy.
"So the fishwives say," Grand Maester Pycelle agreed, "but we know it is not always so. When Maester
Luwin's bird brought the word about your Bran, the message lifted every true heart in the castle, did it
not?"
"As you say, Maester."
"The gods are merciful." Pycelle bowed his head. "Come to me as often as you like, Lord Eddard. I am
here to serve."
Yes, Ned thought as the door swung shut, but whom?
On the way back to his chambers, he came upon his daughter Arya on the winding steps of the Tower
of the Hand, windmilling her arms as she struggled to balance on one leg. The rough stone had scuffed
her bare feet. Ned stopped and looked at her. "Arya, what are you doing?"
"Syrio says a water dancer can stand on one toe for hours." Her hands flailed at the air to steady herself.
Ned had to smile. "Which toe?" he teased.
"Any toe," Arya said, exasperated with the question. She hopped from her right leg to her left, swaying
dangerously before she regained her balance.
"Must you do your standing here?" he asked. "It's a long hard fall down these steps."
"Syrio says a water dancer never falls." She lowered her leg to stand on two feet. "Father, will Bran
come and live with us now?"
"Not for a long time, sweet one," he told her. "He needs to win his strength back."
Arya bit her lip. "What will Bran do when he's of age?"
Ned knelt beside her. "He has years to find that answer, Arya. For
now, it is enough to know that he will live." The night the bird had come from Winterfell, Eddard Stark
had taken the girls to the castle godswood, an acre of elm and alder and black cottonwood overlooking
the river. The heart tree there was a great oak, its ancient limbs overgrown with smokeberry vines; they
knelt before it to offer their thanksgiving, as if it had been a weirwood. Sansa drifted to sleep as the moon
rose, Arya several hours later, curling up in the grass under Ned's cloak. All through the dark hours he
kept his vigil alone. When dawn broke over the city, the dark red blooms of dragon's breath surrounded
the girls where they lay. "I dreamed of Bran," Sansa had whispered to him. "I saw him smiling."


"He was going to be a knight," Arya was saying now. "A knight of the Kingsguard. Can he still be a
knight?"
"No," Ned said. He saw no use in lying to her. "Yet someday he may be the lord of a great holdfast and
sit on the king's council. He might raise castles like Brandon the Builder, or sail a ship across the Sunset
Sea, or enter your mother's Faith and become the High Septon." But he will never run beside his wolf
again, he thought with a sadness too deep for words, or lie with a woman, or hold his own son in his
arms.
Arya cocked her head to one side. "Can I be a king's councillor and build castles and become the High
Septon?"
"You," Ned said, kissing her lightly on the brow, "will marry a king and rule his castle, and your sons will
be knights and princes and lords and, yes, perhaps even a High Septon."
Arya screwed up her face. "No," she said, "that's Sansa." She folded up her right leg and resumed her
balancing. Ned sighed and left her there.
Inside his chambers, he stripped off his sweat-stained silks and sluiced cold water over his head from the
basin beside the bed. Alyn entered as he was drying his face. "My lord," he said, "Lord Baelish is without
and begs audience."
"Escort him to my solar," Ned said, reaching for a fresh tunic, the lightest linen he could find. "I'll see him
at once."
Littlefinger was perched on the window seat when Ned entered, watching the knights of the Kingsguard
practice at swords in the yard below. "If only old Selmy's mind were as nimble as his blade," he said
wistfully, "our council meetings would be a good deal livelier."
"Ser Barristan is as valiant and honorable as any man in King's Landing." Ned had come to have a deep
respect for the aged, whitehaired Lord Commander of the Kingsguard.
"And as tiresome," Littlefinger added, "though I daresay he should
do well in the tourney. Last year he unhorsed the Hound, and it was only four years ago that he was
champion."
The question of who might win the tourney interested Eddard Stark not in the least. "Is there a reason for
this visit, Lord Petyr, or are you here simply to enjoy the view from my window?"
Littlefinger smiled. "I promised Cat I would help you in your inquiries, and so I have."
That took Ned aback. Promise or no promise, he could not find it in him to trust Lord Petyr Baelish,
who struck him as too clever by half. "You have something for me?"
"Someone," Littlefinger corrected. "Four someones, if truth be told. Had you thought to question the
Hand's servants?"


Ned frowned. "Would that I could. Lady Arryn took her household back to the Eyrie." Lysa had done
him no favor in that regard. All those who had stood closest to her husband had gone with her when she
fled: Jon's maester, his steward, the captain of his guard, his knights and retainers.
"Most of her household," Littlefinger said, "not all. A few remain. A pregnant kitchen girl hastily wed to
one of Lord Renly's grooms, a stablehand who joined the City Watch, a potboy discharged from service
for theft, and Lord Arryn's squire."
"His squire?" Ned was pleasantly surprised. A man's squire often knew a great deal of his comings and
goings.
"Ser Hugh of the Vale," Littlefinger named him. "The king knighted the boy after Lord Arryn's death."
"I shall send for him," Ned said. "And the others."
Littlefinger winced. "My lord, step over here to the window, if you would be so kind."
"Why?"
"Come, and I'll show you, my lord."
Frowning, Ned crossed to the window. Petyr Baelish made a casual gesture. "There, across the yard, at
the door of the armory, do you see the boy squatting by the steps honing a sword with an oilstone?"
"What of him?"
"He reports to Varys. The Spider has taken a great interest in you and all your doings." He shifted in the
window seat. "Now glance at the wall. Farther west, above the stables. The guardsman leaning on the
ramparts?"
Ned saw the man. "Another of the eunuch's whisperers?"
"No, this one belongs to the queen. Notice that he enjoys a fine view of the door to this tower, the better
to note who calls on you.
There are others, many unknown even to me. The Red Keep is full of eyes. Why do you think I hid Cat
in a brothel?"
Eddard Stark had no taste for these intrigues. "Seven hells," he swore. It did seem as though the man on
the wahs was watching him. Suddenly uncomfortable, Ned moved away from the window. "Is everyone
someone's informer in this cursed city?"
"Scarcely," said Littlefinger. He counted on the fingers on his hand. "Why, there's me, you, the king . . .
although, come to think on it, the king tells the queen much too much, and I'm less than certain about
you." He stood up. "Is there a man in your service that you trust utterly and completely?"
"Yes," said Ned.
"In that case, I have a delightful palace in Valyria that I would dearly love to sell you," Littlefinger said


with a mocking smile. "The wiser answer was no, my lord, but be that as it may. Send this paragon of
yours to Ser Hugh and the others. Your own comings and goings will be noted, but even Varys the
Spider cannot watch every man in your service every hour of the day." He started for the door.
"Lord Petyr," Ned called after him. "I . . . am grateful for your help. Perhaps I was wrong to distrust
you."
Littlefinger fingered his small pointed beard. "You are slow to learn, Lord Eddard. Distrusting me was
the wisest thing you've done since you climbed down off your horse."
JON
Jon was showing Dareon how best to deliver a sidestroke when the new recruit entered the practice
yard. "Your feet should be farther apart," he urged. "You don't want to lose your balance. That's good.
Now pivot as you deliver the stroke, get all your weight behind the blade."
Dareon broke off and lifted his visor. "Seven gods," he murmured. "Would you look at this, Jon."
Jon turned. Through the eye slit of his helm, he beheld the fattest boy he had ever seen standing in the
door of the armory. By the look of him, he must have weighed twenty stone. The fur collar of his
embroidered surcoat was lost beneath his chins. Pale eyes moved nervously in a great round moon of a
face, and plump sweaty fingers wiped themselves on the velvet of his doublet. "They . . . they told me I
was to come here for . . . for training," he said to no one in particular.
"A lordling," Pyp observed to Jon. "Southron, most like near Highgarden." Pyp had traveled the Seven
Kingdoms with a mummers' troupe, and bragged that he could tell what you were and where you'd been
born just from the sound of your voice.
A striding huntsman had been worked in scarlet thread upon the breast of the fat boy's fur-trimmed
surcoat. Jon did not recognize the sigil. Ser Alliser Thorne looked over his new charge and said, "It
would seem they have run short of poachers and thieves down south.
Now they send us pigs to man the Wall. Is fur and velvet your notion of armor, my Lord of Ham?"
It was soon revealed that the new recruit had brought his own armor with him; padded doublet, boiled
leather, mail and plate and helm, even a great wood-and-leather shield blazoned with the same striding
huntsman he wore on his surcoat. As none of it was black, however, Ser Alliser insisted that he reequip
himself from the armory. That took half the morning. His girth required Donal Noye to take apart a mail
hauberk and refit it with leather panels at the sides. To get a helm over his head the armorer had to
detach the visor. His leathers bound so tightly around his legs and under his arms that he could scarcely
move. Dressed for battle, the new boy looked like an overcooked sausage about to burst its skin. "Let us
hope you are not as inept as you look," Ser Alliser said. "Halder, see what Ser Piggy can do."
Jon Snow winced. Halder had been born in a quarry and apprenticed as a stonemason. He was sixteen,
tall and muscular, and his blows were as hard as any Jon had ever felt. "This will be uglier than a whore's
ass," Pyp muttered, and it was.


The fight lasted less than a minute before the fat boy was on the ground, his whole body shaking as
blood leaked through his shattered helm and between his pudgy fingers. "I yield," he shrilled. "No more, I
yield, don't hit me." Rast and some of the other boys were laughing.
Even then, Ser Alliser would not call an end. "On your feet, Ser Piggy," he called. "Pick up your sword."
When the boy continued to cling to the ground, Thorne gestured to Halder. "Hit him with the flat of your
blade until he finds his feet." Halder delivered a tentative smack to his foe's upraised cheeks. "You can hit
harder than that," Thorne taunted. Halder took hold of his longsword with both hands and brought it
down so hard the blow split leather, even on the flat. The new boy screeched in pain.
Jon Snow took a step forward. Pyp laid a mailed hand on his arm. "Jon, no," the small boy whispered
with an anxious glance at Ser Alliser Thorne.
"On your feet," Thorne repeated. The fat boy struggled to rise, slipped, and fell heavily again. "Ser Piggy
is starting to grasp the notion," Ser Alliser observed. "Again."
Halder lifted the sword for another blow. "Cut us off a ham!" Rast urged, laughing.
Jon shook off Pyp's hand. "Halder, enough."
Halder looked to Ser Alliser.
"The Bastard speaks and the peasants tremble," the master-at-arms
said in that sharp, cold voice of his. "I remind you that I am the master-at-arms here, Lord Snow."
"Look at him, Haider," Jon urged, ignoring Thorne as best he could. "There's no honor in beating a fallen
foe. He yielded." He knelt beside the fat boy.
Haider lowered his sword. "He yielded," he echoed.
Ser Alliser's onyx eyes were fixed on Jon Snow. "It would seem our Bastard is in love," he said as Jon
helped the fat boy to his feet. "Show me your steel, Lord Snow."
Jon drew his longsword. He dared defy Ser Alliser only to a point, and he feared he was well beyond it
now.
Thorne smiled. "The Bastard wishes to defend his lady love, so we shall make an exercise of it. Rat,
Pimple, help our Stone Head here." Rast and Albett moved to join Haider. "Three of you ought to be
sufficient to make Lady Piggy squeal. All you need do is get past the Bastard."
"Stay behind me," Jon said to the fat boy. Ser Alliser had often sent two foes against him, but never
three. He knew he would likely go to sleep bruised and bloody tonight. He braced himself for the assault.
Suddenly Pyp was beside him. "Three to two will make for better sport," the small boy said cheerfully.
He dropped his visor and slid out his sword. Before Jon could even think to protest, Grenn had stepped
up to make a third.
The yard had grown deathly quiet. Jon could feel Ser Alliser's eyes. "Why are you waiting?" he asked


Rast and the others in a voice gone deceptively soft, but it was Jon who moved first. Haider barely got
his sword up in time.
Jon drove him backward, attacking with every blow, keeping the older boy on the heels. Know your
foe, Ser Rodrik had taught him once; Jon knew Haider, brutally strong but short of patience, with no
taste for defense. Frustrate him, and he would leave himself open, as certain as sunset.
The clang of steel echoed through the yard as the others joined battle around him. Jon blocked a savage
cut at his head, the shock of impact running up his arm as the swords crashed together. He slammed a
sidestroke into Haider's ribs, and was rewarded with a muffled grunt of pain. The counterstroke caught
Jon on the shoulder. Chainmail crunched, and pain flared up his neck, but for an instant Haider was
unbalanced. Jon cut his left leg from under him, and he fell with a curse and a crash.
Grenn was standing his ground as Jon had taught him, giving Albett more than he cared for, but Pyp was
hard-pressed. Rast had two years
232
GEORGE R.R. MARTIN
and forty pounds on him. Jon stepped up behind him and rang the raper's helm like a bell. As Rast went
reeling, Pyp slid in under his guard, knocked him down, and leveled a blade at his throat. By then Jon
had moved on. Facing two swords, Albett backed away. "I yield," he shouted.
Ser Alliser Thorne surveyed the scene with disgust. "The mummer's farce has gone on long enough for
today." He walked away. The session was at an end.
Dareon helped Halder to his feet. The quarryman's son wrenched off his helm and threw it across the
yard. "For an instant, I thought I finally had you, Snow."
"For an instant, you did," Jon replied. Under his mail and leather, his shoulder was throbbing. He
sheathed his sword and tried to remove his helm, but when he raised his arm, the pain made him grit his
teeth.
"Let me," a voice said. Thick-fingered hands unfastened helm from gorget and lifted it off gently. "Did he
hurt you?"
"I've been bruised before." He touched his shoulder and winced. The yard was emptying around them.
Blood matted the fat boy's hair where Halder had split his helm asunder. "My name is Samwell Tarly, of
Horn . . ." He stopped and licked his lips. "I mean, I was of Horn Hill, until I . . . left. I've come to take
the black. My father is Lord Randyll, a bannerman to the
Tyrells of Highgarden. I used to be his heir, only His voice
trailed off.
"I'm Jon Snow, Ned Stark's bastard, of Winterfell."
Samwell Tarly nodded. "I


My mother calls me Sam."
"You can call him Lord Snow," Pyp said as he came up to join them. "You don't want to know what his
mother calls him."
"These two are Grenn and Pypar," Jon said.
"Grenn's the ugly one," Pyp said.
Grenn scowled. "You're uglier than me. At least I don't have ears like a bat."
"My thanks to all of you," the fat boy said gravely.
"Why didn't you get up and fight?" Grenn demanded.
"I wanted to, truly. I just . . . I couldn't. I didn't want him to hit me anymore." He looked at the ground.
"I
My lord father always said so."
Grenn looked thunderstruck. Even Pyp had no words to say to that, and Pyp had words for everything.
What sort of man would proclaim himself a coward?
Samwell Tarly must have read their thoughts on their faces. His eyes
. if you want, you can call me Sam.
I fear I'm a coward.
met Jon's and darted away, quick as frightened animals. "I ... I'm sorry," he said. "I don't mean to . . . to
be like I am." He walked heavily toward the armory.
Jon called after him. "You were hurt," he said. "Tomorrow you'll do better."
Sam looked mournfully back over one shoulder. "No I won't," he said, blinking back tears. "I never do
better."
When he was gone, Grenn frowned. "Nobody likes cravens," he said uncomfortably. "I wish we hadn't
helped him. What if they think we're craven too?"
"You're too stupid to be craven," Pyp told him.
"I am not," Grenn said.
"Yes you are. If a bear attacked you in the woods, you'd be too stupid to run away."
"I would not," Grenn insisted. "I'd run away faster than you." He stopped suddenly, scowling when he
saw Pyp's grin and realized what he'd just said. His thick neck flushed a dark red. Jon left them there
arguing as he returned to the armory, hung up his sword, and stripped off his battered armor.


Life at Castle Black followed certain patterns; the mornings were for swordplay, the afternoons for
work. The black brothers set new recruits to many different tasks, to learn where their skills lay. Jon
cherished the rare afternoons when he was sent out with Ghost ranging at his side to bring back game for
the Lord Commander's table, but for every day spent hunting, he gave a dozen to Donal Noye in the
armory, spinning the whetstone while the one-armed smith sharpened axes grown dull from use, or
pumping the bellows as Noye hammered out a new sword. Other times he ran messages, stood at guard,
mucked out stables, fletched arrows, assisted Maester Aemon with his birds or Bowen Marsh with his
counts and inventories.
That afternoon, the watch commander sent him to the winch cage with four barrels of fresh-crushed
stone, to scatter gravel over the icy footpaths atop the Wall. It was lonely and boring work, even with
Ghost along for company, but Jon found he did not mind. On a clear day you could see half the world
from the top of the Wall, and the air was always cold and bracing. He could think here, and he found
himself thinking of Samwell Tarly . . . and, oddly, of Tyrion Lannister. He wondered what Tyrion would
have made of the fat boy. Most men would rather deny a hard truth than face it, the dwarf had told him,
grinning. The world was full of cravens who pretended to be heroes; it took a queer sort of courage to
admit to cowardice as Samwell Tarly had.
His sore shoulder made the work go slowly. It was late afternoon before Jon finished graveling the
paths. He lingered on high to watch the sun go down, turning the western sky the color of blood. Finally,
as dusk was settling over the north, Jon rolled the empty barrels back into the cage and signaled the
winch men to lower him.
The evening meal was almost done by the time he and Ghost reached the common hall. A group of the
black brothers were dicing over mulled wine near the fire. His friends were at the bench nearest the west
wall, laughing. Pyp was in the middle of a story. The mummer's boy with the big ears was a born liar with
a hundred different voices, and he did not tell his tales so much as live them, playing all the parts as
needed, a king one moment and a swineherd the next. When he turned into an alehouse girl or a virgin
princess, he used a high falsetto voice that reduced them all to tears of helpless laughter, and his eunuchs
were always eerily accurate caricatures of Ser Alliser. Jon took as much pleasure from Pyp's antics as
anyone . . . yet that night he turned away and went instead to the end of the bench, where Samwell Tarly
sat alone, as far from the others as he could get.
He was finishing the last of the pork pie the cooks had served up for supper when Jon sat down across
from him. The fat boy's eyes widened at the sight of Ghost. "Is that a wolf?"
"A direwolf," Jon said. "His name is Ghost. The direwolf is the sigil of my father's House."
"Ours is a striding huntsman," Samwell Tarly said.
"Do you like to hunt?"
The fat boy shuddered. "I hate it." He looked as though he was going to cry again.
"What's wrong now?" Jon asked him. "Why are you always so frightened?"
Sam stared at the last of his pork pie and gave a feeble shake of his head, too scared even to talk. A
burst of laughter filled the hall. Jon heard Pyp squeaking in a high voice. He stood. "Let's go outside."


The round fat face looked up at him, suspicious. "Why? What will we do outside?"
"Talk," Jon said. "Have you seen the Wall?"
"I'm fat, not blind," Samwell Tarly said. "Of course I saw it, it's seven hundred feet high." Yet he stood
up all the same, wrapped a furlined cloak over his shoulders, and followed Jon from the common hall, still
wary, as if he suspected some cruel trick was waiting for him in the night. Ghost padded along beside
them. "I never thought it would be like this," Sam said as they walked, his words steaming in the
A GAML OF THRONFS 235
cold air. Already he was huffing and puffing as he tried to keep up. "All the buildings are falling down,
and it's so . . . so . . ."
"Cold?" A hard frost was settling over the castle, and Jon could hear the soft crunch of grey weeds
beneath his boots.
Sam nodded miserably. "I hate the cold," he said. "Last night I woke up in the dark and the fire had gone
out and I was certain I was going to freeze to death by morning."
"It must have been warmer where you come from."
"I never saw snow until last month. We were crossing the barrowlands, me and the men my father sent
to see me north, and this white stuff began to fall, like a soft rain. At first I thought it was so beautiful, like
feathers drifting from the sky, but it kept on and on, until I was frozen to the bone. The men had crusts of
snow in their beards and more on their shoulders, and still it kept coming. I was afraid it would never
end."
Jon smiled.
The Wall loomed before them, glimmering palely in the light of the half moon. In the sky above, the stars
burned clear and sharp. "Are they going to make me go up there?" Sam asked. His face curdled like old
milk as he looked at the great wooden stairs. "I'll die if I have to climb that."
"There's a winch," Jon said, pointing. "They can draw you up in a cage."
Samwell Tarly sniffled. "I don't like high places."
It was too much. Jon frowned, incredulous. "Are you afraid of everything?" he asked. "I don't
understand. If you are truly so craven, why are you here? Why would a coward want to join the Night's
Watch?"
Samwell Tarly looked at him for a long moment, and his round face seemed to cave in on itself. He sat
down on the frost-covered ground and began to cry, huge choking sobs that made his whole body
shake. Jon Snow could only stand and watch. Like the snowfall on the barrowlands, it seemed the tears
would never end.
It was Ghost who knew what to do. Silent as shadow, the pale direwolf moved closer and began to lick
the warm tears off Samwell Tarly's face. The fat boy cried out, startled . . . and somehow, in a heartbeat,
his sobs turned to laughter.


Jon Snow laughed with him. Afterward they sat on the frozen ground, huddled in their cloaks with Ghost
between them. Jon told the story of how he and Robb had found the pups newborn in the late summer
snows. It seemed a thousand years ago now. Before long he found himself talking of Winterfell.
"Sometimes I dream about it," he said. "I'm walking down this long empty hall. My voice echoes all
around, but no one answers, so I walk faster, opening doors, shouting names. I don't even know who I'm
looking for. Most nights it's my father, but sometimes it's Robb instead, or my little sister Arya, or my
uncle." The thought of Benjen Stark saddened him; his uncle was still missing. The Old Bear had sent out
rangers in search of him. Ser Jaremy Rykker had led two sweeps, and Quorin Halfhand had gone forth
from the Shadow Tower, but they'd found nothing aside from a few blazes in the trees that his uncle had
left to mark his way. In the stony highlands to the northwest, the marks stopped abruptly and all trace of
Ben Stark vanished.
"Do you ever find anyone in your dream?" Sam asked.
Jon shook his head. "No one. The castle is always empty." He had never told anyone of the dream, and
he did not understand why he was telling Sam now, yet somehow it felt good to talk of it. "Even the
ravens are gone from the rookery, and the stables are full of bones. That always scares me. I start to run
then, throwing open doors, climbing the tower three steps at a time, screaming for someone, for anyone.
And then I find myself in front of the door to the crypts. It's black inside, and I can see the steps spiraling
down. Somehow I know I have to go down there, but I don't want to. I'm afraid of what might be
waiting for me. The old Kings of Winter are down there, sitting on their thrones with stone wolves at their
feet and iron swords across their laps, but it's not them I'm afraid of. I scream that I'm not a Stark, that
this isn't my place, but it's no good, I have to go anyway, so I start down, feeling the walls as I descend,
with no torch to light the way. It gets darker and darker, until I want to scream." He stopped, frowning,
embarrassed. "That's when I always wake." His skin cold and clammy, shivering in the darkness of his
cell. Ghost would leap up beside him, his warmth as comforting as daybreak. He would go back to sleep
with his face pressed into the direwolf s shaggy white fur. "Do you dream of Horn Hill?" Jon asked.
"No." Sam's mouth grew tight and hard. "I hated it there." He scratched Ghost behind the ear, brooding,
and Jon let the silence breathe. After a long while Samwell Tarly began to talk, and Jon Snow listened
quietly, and learned how it was that a self-confessed coward found himself on the Wall.
The Tarlys were a family old in honor, bannermen to Mace Tyrell, Lord of Highgarden and Warden of
the South. The eldest son of Lord Randyll Tarly, Samwell was born heir to rich lands, a strong keep, and
a storied two-handed greatsword named Heartsbane, forged of
Valyrian steel and passed down from father to son near five hundred years.
Whatever pride his lord father might have felt at Samwell's birth vanished as the boy grew up plump,
soft, and awkward. Sam loved to listen to music and make his own songs, to wear soft velvets, to play in
the castle kitchen beside the cooks, drinking in the rich smells as he snitched lemon cakes and blueberry
tarts. His passions were books and kittens and dancing, clumsy as he was. But he grew ill at the sight of
blood, and wept to see even a chicken slaughtered. A dozen mastersat-arms came and went at Horn
Hill, trying to turn Samwell into the knight his father wanted. The boy was cursed and caned, slapped and
starved. One man had him sleep in his chainmail to make him more martial. Another dressed him in his


mother's clothing and paraded him through the bailey to shame him into valor. He only grew fatter and
more frightened, until Lord Randyll's disappointment turned to anger and then to loathing. "One time,"
Sam confided, his voice dropping from a whisper, "two men came to the castle, warlocks from Qarth
with white skin and blue lips. They slaughtered a bull aurochs and made me bathe in the hot blood, but it
didn't make me brave as they'd promised. I got sick and retched. Father had them scourged."
Finally, after three girls in as many years, Lady Tarly gave her lord husband a second son. From that
day, Lord Randyll ignored Sam, devoting all his time to the younger boy, a fierce, robust child more to
his liking. Samwell had known several years of sweet peace with his music and his books.
Until The dawn of his fifteenth name day, when he had been awakened to find his horse saddled and
ready. Three men-at-arms had escorted him into a wood near Horn Hill, where his father was skinning a
deer. "You are almost a man grown now, and my heir," Lord Randyll Tarly had told his eldest son, his
long knife laying bare the carcass as he spoke. "You have given me no cause to disown you, but neither
will I allow you to inherit the land and title that should be Dickon's. Heartsbane must go to a man strong
enough to wield her, and you are not worthy to touch her hilt. So I have decided that you shall this day
announce that you wish to take the black. You will forsake all claim to your brother's inheritance and
start north before evenfall.
"If you do not, then on the morrow we shall have a hunt, and somewhere in these woods your horse will
stumble, and you will be thrown from the saddle to die . . . or so I will tell your mother. She has a
woman's heart and finds it in her to cherish even you, and I have no wish to cause her pain. Please do not
imagine that it will truly be
that easy, should you think to defy me. Nothing would please me more than to hunt you down like the
pig you are." His arms were red to the elbow as he laid the skinning knife aside. "So. There is your
choice. The Night's Watch"-he reached inside the deer, ripped out its heart, and held it in his fist, red and
dripping-"or this."
Sam told the tale in a calm, dead voice, as if it were something that had happened to someone else, not
to him. And strangely, Jon thought, he did not weep, not even once. When he was done, they sat
together and listened to the wind for a time. There was no other sound in all the world.
Finally Jon said, "We should go back to the common hall."
"Why?" Sam asked.
Jon shrugged. "There's hot cider to drink, or mulled wine if you prefer. Some nights Dareon sings for us,
if the mood is on him. He was a singer, before . . . well, not truly, but almost, an apprentice singer."
"How did he come here?" Sam asked.
"Lord Rowan of Goldengrove found him in bed with his daughter. The girl was two years older, and
Dareon swears she helped him through her window, but under her father's eye she named it rape, so here
he is. When Maester Aemon heard him sing, he said his voice was honey poured over thunder." Jon
smiled. "Toad sometimes sings too, if you call it singing. Drinking songs he learned in his father's winesink.
Pyp says his voice is piss poured over a fart." They laughed at that together.
"I should like to hear them both," Sam admitted, "but they would not want me there." His face was


troubled. "He's going to make me fight again on the morrow, isn't he?"
"He is," Jon was forced to say.
Sam got awkwardly to his feet. "I had better try to sleep." He huddled down in his cloak and plodded
off.
The others were still in the common room when Jon returned, alone but for Ghost. "Where haveyou
been?" Pyp asked.
"Talking with Sam," he said.
"He truly is craven," said Grenn. "At supper, there were still places on the bench when he got his pie, but
he was too scared to come sit with us."
"The Lord of Ham thinks he's too good to eat with the likes of us," suggested Jeren.
"I saw him eat a pork pie," Toad said, smirking. "Do you think it was a brother?" He began to make
oinking noises.
"Stop it!" Jon snapped angrily.
The other boys fell silent, taken aback by his sudden fury. "Listen to
me," Jon said into the quiet, and he told them how it was going to be. Pyp backed him, as he'd known
he would, but when Halder spoke up, it was a pleasant surprise. Grenn was anxious at the first, but Jon
knew the words to move him. One by one the rest fell in line. Jon persuaded some, cajoled some,
shamed the others, made threats where threats were required. At the end they had all agreed . . . all but
Rast.
"You girls do as you please," Rast said, "but if Thorne sends me against Lady Piggy, I'm going to slice
me off a rasher of bacon." He laughed in Jon's face and left them there.
Hours later, as the castle slept, three of them paid a call on his cell. Grenn held his arms while Pyp sat on
his legs. Jon could hear Rast's rapid breathing as Ghost leapt onto his chest. The direwolf's eyes burned
red as embers as his teeth nipped lightly at the soft skin of the boy's throat, just enough to draw blood.
"Remember, we know where you sleep," Jon said softly.
The next morning Jon heard Rast tell Albett and Toad how his razor had slipped while he shaved.
From that day forth, neither Rast nor any of the others would hurt Samwell Tarly. When Ser Alliser
matched them against him, they would stand their ground and swat aside his slow, clumsy strokes. If the
master-at-arms screamed for an attack, they would dance in and tap Sam lightly on breastplate or helm
or leg. Ser Alliser raged and threatened and called them all cravens and women and worse, yet Sam
remained unhurt. A few nights later, at Jon's urging, he joined them for the evening meal, taking a place
on the bench beside Halder. It was another fortnight before he found the nerve to join their talk, but in
time he was laughing at Pyp's faces and teasing Grenn with the best of them.
Fat and awkward and frightened he might be, but Samwell Tarly was no fool. One night he visited Jon in


his cell. "I don't know what you did," he said, "but I know you did it." He looked away shyly. "I've never
had a friend before."
"We're not friends," Jon said. He put a hand on Sam's broad shoulder. "We're brothers."
And so they were, he thought to himself after Sam had taken his leave. Robb and Bran and Rickon were
his father's sons, and he loved them still, yet Jon knew that he had never truly been one of them. Catelyn
Stark had seen to that. The grey walls of Winterfell might still haunt his dreams, but Castle Black was his
life now, and his brothers were Sam and Grenn and Halder and Pyp and the other cast-outs who wore
the black of the Night's Watch.
"My uncle spoke truly," he whispered to Ghost. He wondered if he would ever see Benjen Stark again,
to tell him.
EDDARD
"'It's the Hand's tourney that's the cause of all the trouble, my lords," the Commander of the City Watch
complained to the king's council.
"The king's tourney," Ned corrected, wincing. "I assure you, the Hand wants no part of it."
"Call it what you will, my lord. Knights have been arriving from all over the realm, and for every knight
we get two freeriders, three craftsmen, six men-at-arms, a dozen merchants, two dozen whores, and
more thieves than I dare guess. This cursed heat had half the city in a fever to start, and now with all
these visitors . . . last night we had a drowning, a tavern riot, three knife fights, a rape, two fires,
robberies beyond count, and a drunken horse race down the Street of the Sisters. The night before a
woman's head was found in the Great Sept, floating in the rainbow pool. No one seems to know how it
got there or who it belongs to."
"How dreadful," Varys said with a shudder.
Lord Renly Baratheon was less sympathetic. "If you cannot keep the king's peace, Janos, perhaps the
City Watch should be commanded by someone who can."
Stout, jowly Janos Slynt puffed himself up like an angry frog, his bald pate reddening. "Aegon the
Dragon himself could not keep the peace, Lord Renly. I need more men."
"How many?" Ned asked, leaning forward. As ever, Robert had not troubled himself to attend the
council session, so it fell to his Hand to speak for him.
"As many as can be gotten, Lord Hand."
"Hire fifty new men," Ned told him. "Lord Baelish will see that you get the coin."
"I will?" Littlefinger said.
"You will. You found forty thousand golden dragons for a champion's purse, surely you can scrape


together a few coppers to keep the king's peace." Ned turned back to Janos Slynt. "I will also give you
twenty good swords from my own household guard, to serve with the Watch until the crowds have left."
"All thanks, Lord Hand," Slynt said, bowing. "I promise you, they shall be put to good use."
When the Commander had taken his leave, Eddard Stark turned to the rest of the council. "The sooner
this folly is done with, the better I shall like it." As if the expense and trouble were not irksome enough, all
and sundry insisted on salting Ned's wound by calling it "the Hand's tourney," as if he were the cause of
it. And Robert honestly seemed to think he should feel honored!
"The realm prospers from such events, my lord," Grand Maester Pycelle said. "They bring the great the
chance of glory, and the lowly a respite from their woes."
"And put coins in many a pocket," Littlefinger added. "Every inn in the city is full, and the whores are
walking bowlegged and jingling with each step."
Lord Renly laughed. "We're fortunate my brother Stannis is not with us. Remember the time he
proposed to outlaw brothels? The king asked him if perhaps he'd like to outlaw eating, shitting, and
breathing while he was at it. If truth be told, I ofttimes wonder how Stannis ever got that ugly daughter of
his. He goes to his marriage bed like a man marching to a battlefield, with a grim look in his eyes and a
determination to do his duty."
Ned had not joined the laughter. "I wonder about your brother Stannis as well. I wonder when he
intends to end his visit to Dragonstone and resume his seat on this council."
"No doubt as soon as we've scourged all those whores into the sea," Littlefinger replied, provoking more
laughter.
"I have heard quite enough about whores for one day," Ned said, rising. "Until the morrow."
Harwin had the door when Ned returned to the Tower of the Hand.
"Summon Jory to my chambers and tell your father to saddle my horse," Ned told him, too brusquely.
"As you say, my lord."
The Red Keep and the "Hand's tourney" were chafing him raw, Ned reflected as he climbed. He
yearned for the comfort of Catelyn's arms, for the sounds of Robb and Jon crossing swords in the
practice yard, for the cool days and cold nights of the north.
In his chambers he stripped off his council silks and sat for a moment with the book while he waited for
Jory to arrive. The Lineages and Histories of the Great Houses of the Seven Kingdoms, With
Descliptions of Many High Lords and Noble Ladies and Their Children, by Grand Maester Malleon.
Pycelle had spoken truly; it made for ponderous reading. Yet Jon Arryn had asked for it, and Ned felt
certain he had reasons. There was something here, some truth buried in these brittle yellow pages, if only
he could see it. But what? The tome was over a century old. Scarcely a man now alive had yet been born
when Malleon had compiled his dusty lists of weddings, births, and deaths.
He opened to the section on House Lannister once more, and turned the pages slowly, hoping against


hope that something would leap out at him. The Lannisters were an old family, tracing their descent back
to Lann the Clever, a trickster from the Age of Heroes who was no doubt as legendary as Bran the
Builder, though far more beloved of singers and taletellers. In the songs, Lann was the fellow who
winkled the Casterlys out of Casterly Rock with no weapon but his wits, and stole gold from the sun to
brighten his curly hair. Ned wished he were here now, to winkle the truth out of this damnable book.
A sharp rap on the door heralded Jory Cassel. Ned closed Malleon's tome and bid him enter. "I've
promised the City Watch twenty of my guard until the tourney is done," he told him. "I rely on you to
make the choice. Give Alyn the command, and make certain the men understand that they are needed to
stop fights, not start them." Rising, Ned opened a cedar chest and removed a light linen undertunic. "Did
you find the stableboy?"
"The watchman, my lord," Jory said. "He vows he'll never touch another horse."
"What did he have to say?"
"He claims he knew Lord Arryn well. Fast friends, they were." Jory snorted. "The Hand always gave the
lads a copper on their name days, he says. Had a way with horses. Never rode his mounts too hard, and
brought them carrots and apples, so they were always pleased to see him."
"Carrots and apples," Ned repeated. It sounded as if this boy would
be even less use than the others. And he was the last of the four Littlefinger had turned up. Jory had
spoken to each of them in turn. Ser Hugh had been brusque and uninformative, and arrogant as only a
new-made knight can be. If the Hand wished to talk to him, he should be pleased to receive him, but he
would not be questioned by a mere captain of guards . . . even if said captain was ten years older and a
hundred times the swordsman. The serving girl had at least been pleasant. She said Lord Jon had been
reading more than was good for him, that he was troubled and melancholy over his young son's frailty,
and gruff with his lady wife. The potboy, now cordwainer, had never exchanged so much as a word with
Lord Jon, but he was full of oddments of kitchen gossip: the lord had been quarreling with the king, the
lord only picked at his food, the lord was sending his boy to be fostered on Dragonstone, the lord had
taken a great interest in the breeding of hunting hounds, the lord had visited a master armorer to
commission a new suit of plate, wrought all in pale silver with a blue jasper falcon and a mother-of-pearl
moon on the breast. The king's own brother had gone with him to help choose the design, the potboy
said. No, not Lord Renly, the other one, Lord Stannis.
"Did our watchman recall anything else of note?"
"The lad swears Lord Jon was as strong as a man half his age. Often went riding with Lord Stannis, he
says."
Stannis again, Ned thought. He found that curious. Jon Arryn and he had been cordial, but never
friendly. And while Robert had been riding north to Winterfell, Stannis had removed himself to
Dragonstone, the Targaryen island fastness he had conquered in his brother's name. He had given no
word as to when he might return. "Where did they go on these rides?" Ned asked.
"The boy says that they visited a brothel."
"A brothel?" Ned said. "The Lord of the Eyrie and Hand of the King visited a brothel with Stannis


Baratheon?" He shook his head, incredulous, wondering what Lord Renly would make of this tidbit.
Robert's lusts were the subject of ribald drinking songs throughout the realm, but Stannis was a different
sort of man; a bare year younger than the king, yet utterly unlike him, stern, humorless, unforgiving, grim
in his sense of duty.
"The boy insists it's true. The Hand took three guardsmen with him, and the boy says they were joking of
it when he took their horses afterward."
"Which brothel?" Ned asked.
"The boy did not know. The guards would."
"A pity Lysa carried them off to the Vale," Ned said dryly. "The
gods are doing their best to vex us. Lady Lysa, Maester Colemon, Lord Stannis ... everyone who might
actually know the truth of what happened to Jon Arryn is a thousand leagues away."
"Will you summon Lord Stannis back from Dragonstone?"
"Not yet," Ned said. "Not until I have a better notion of what this is all about and where he stands." The
matter nagged at him. Why did Stannis leave? Had he played some part in Jon Arryn's murder? Or was
he afraid? Ned found it hard to imagine what could frighten Stannis Baratheon, who had once held
Storm's End through a year of siege, surviving on rats and boot leather while the Lords Tyrell and
Redwyne sat outside with their hosts, banqueting in sight of his walls.
"Bring me my doublet, if you would. The grey, with the direwolf sigil. I want this armorer to know who I
am. It might make him more forthcoming."
Jory went to the wardrobe. "Lord Renly is brother to Lord Stannis as well as the king."
"Yet it seems that he was not invited on these rides." Ned was not sure what to make of Renly, with all
his friendly ways and easy smiles. A few days past, he had taken Ned aside to show him an exquisite
rose gold locklet. Inside was a miniature painted in the vivid Myrish style, of a lovely young girl with doe's
eyes and a cascade of soft brown hair. Renly had seemed anxious to know if the girl reminded him of
anyone, and when Ned had no answer but a shrug, he had seemed disappointed. The maid was Loras
Tyrell's sister Margaery, he'd confessed, but there were those who said she looked like Lyanna. "No,"
Ned had told him, bemused. Could it be that Lord Renly, who looked so like a young Robert, had
conceived a passion for a girl he fancied to be a young Lyanna? That struck him as more than passing
queer.
Jory held out the doublet, and Ned slid his hands through the armholes. "Perhaps Lord Stannis will
return for Robert's tourney," he said as Jory laced the garment up the back.
"That would be a stroke of fortune, my lord," Jory said.
Ned buckled on a longsword. "In other words, not bloody likely." His smile was grim.
Jory draped Ned's cloak across his shoulders and clasped it at the throat with the Hand's badge of
office. "The armorer lives above his shop, in a large house at the top of the Street of Steel. Alyn knows


the way, my lord."
Ned nodded. "The gods help this potboy if he's sent me off haring after shadows." It was a slim enough
staff to lean on, but the Jon Arryn that Ned Stark had known was not one to wear jeweled and silvered
plate. Steel was steel; it was meant for protection, not ornament. He
A GAML OF THRONLS 245
might have changed his views, to be sure. He would scarcely have been the first man who came to look
on things differently after a few years at court . . . but the change was marked enough to make Ned
wonder.
"Is there any other service I might perform?"
"I suppose you'd best begin visiting whorehouses."
"Hard duty, my lord." Jory grinned. "The men will be glad to help. Porther has made a fair start already."
Ned's favorite horse was saddled and waiting in the yard. Varly and Jacks fell in beside him as he rode
through the yard. Their steel caps and shirts of mail must have been sweltering, yet they said no word of
complaint. As Lord Eddard passed beneath the King's Gate into the stink of the city, his grey and white
cloak streaming from his shoulders, he saw eyes everywhere and kicked his mount into a trot. His guard
followed.
He looked behind him frequently as they made their way through the crowded city streets. Tomard and
Desmond had left the castle early this morning to take up positions on the route they must take, and
watch for anyone following them, but even so, Ned was uncertain. The shadow of the King's Spider and
his little birds had him fretting like a maiden on her wedding night.
The Street of Steel began at the market square beside the River Gate, as it was named on maps, or the
Mud Gate, as it was commonly called. A mummer on stilts was striding through the throngs like some
great insect, with a horde of barefoot children trailing behind him, hooting. Elsewhere, two ragged boys
no older than Bran were dueling with sticks, to the loud encouragement of some and the furious curses of
others. An old woman ended the contest by leaning out of her window and emptying a bucket of slops
on the heads of the combatants. In the shadow of the wall, farmers stood beside their wagons, bellowing
out, "Apples, the best apples, cheap at twice the price," and "Blood melons, sweet as honey," and
"Turnips, onions, roots, here you go here, here you go, turnips, onions, roots, here you go here."
The Mud Gate was open, and a squad of City Watchmen stood under the portcullis in their golden
cloaks, leaning on spears. When a column of riders appeared from the west, the guardsmen sprang into
action, shouting commands and moving the carts and foot traffic aside to let the knight enter with his
escort. The first rider through the gate carried a long black banner. The silk rippled in the wind like a
living thing; across the fabric was blazoned a night sky slashed with purple lightning. "Make way for Lord
Beric!" the rider shouted. "Make wayfor Lord Befic!" And close behind came the young lord himself, a
dashing
I
figure on a black courser, with red-gold hair and a black satin cloak dusted with stars. "Here to fight in


the Hand's tourney, my lord?" a guardsman called out to him. "Here to win the Hand's tourney," Lord
Beric shouted back as the crowd cheered.
Ned turned off the square where the Street of Steel began and
followed its winding path up a long hill, past blacksmiths working at open forges, freeriders haggling over
mail shirts, and grizzled ironmongers selling old blades and razors from their wagons. The farther they
climbed, the larger the buildings grew. The man they wanted was all the way at the top of the hill, in a
huge house of timber and plaster whose upper stories loomed over the narrow street. The double doors
showed a hunting scene carved in ebony and weirwood. A pair of stone knights stood sentry at the
entrance, armored in fanciful suits of polished red steel that transformed them into griffin and unicorn.
Ned left his horse with Jacks and shouldered his way inside.
The slim young serving girl took quick note of Ned's badge and the sigil on his doublet, and the master
came hurrying out, all smiles and bows. "Wine for the King's Hand," he told the girl, gesturing Ned to a
couch. "I am Tobho Mott, my lord, please, please, put yourself at ease." He wore a black velvet coat
with hammers embroidered on the sleeves in silver thread, Around his neck was a heavy silver chain and
a sapphire as large as a pigeon's egg. "If you are in need of new arms for the Hand's tourney, you have
come to the right shop." Ned did not bother to correct him. "My work is costly, and I make no apologies
for
that, my lord," he said as he filled two matching silver goblets. "You will not find craftsmanship equal to
mine anywhere in the Seven Kingdoms, I promise you. Visit every forge in King's Landing if you like, and
compare for yourself. Any village smith can hammer out a shift of mail; my work is art."
Ned sipped his wine and let the man go on. The Knight of Flowers bought all his armor here, Tobho
boasted, and many high lords, the ones who knew fine steel, and even Lord Renly, the king's own
brother. Perhaps the Hand had seen Lord Renly's new armor, the green plate with the golden antlers?
No other armorer in the city could
get that deep a green; he knew the secret of putting color in the steel itself, paint and enamel were the
crutches of a journeyman. Or mayhaps the Hand wanted a blade? Tobho had learned to work Valyrian
steel at the forges of Oohor as a boy. Only a man who knew
the spells could take old weapons and forge them anew. "The direwolf was the sigil of House Stark, is it
not? I could fashion a direwolf helm so real that children will run from you in the street," he vowed.
Ned smiled. "Did you make a falcon helm for Lord Arryn?"
Tobho Mott paused a long moment and set aside his wine. "The Hand did call upon me, with Lord
Stannis, the king's brother. I regret to say, they did not honor me with their patronage."
Ned looked at the man evenly, saying nothing, waiting. He had found over the years that silence
sometimes yielded more than questions. And so it was this time.
"They asked to see the boy," the armorer said, "so I took them back to the forge."
"The boy," Ned echoed. He had no notion who the boy might be. "I should like to see the boy as well."


Tobho Mott gave him a cool, careful look. "As you wish, my lord," he said with no trace of his former
friendliness. He led Ned out a rear door and across a narrow yard, back to the cavernous stone barn
where the work was done. When the armorer opened the door, the blast of hot air that came through
made Ned feel as though he were walking into a dragon's mouth. Inside, a forge blazed in each corner,
and the air stank of smoke and sulfur. Journeymen armorers glanced up from their hammers and tongs
just long enough to wipe the sweat from their brows, while bare-chested apprentice boys worked the
bellows.
The master called over a tall lad about Robb's age, his arms and chest corded with muscle. "This is Lord
Stark, the new Hand of the King," he told him as the boy looked at Ned through sullen blue eyes and
pushed back sweat-soaked hair with his fingers. Thick hair, shaggy and unkempt and black as ink. The
shadow of a new beard darkened his jaw. "This is Gendry. Strong for his age, and he works hard. Show
the Hand that helmet you made, lad." Almost shyly, the boy led them to his bench, and a steel helm
shaped like a bull's head, with two great curving horns.
Ned turned the helm over in his hands. It was raw steel, unpolished but expertly shaped. "This is fine
work. I would be pleased if you would let me buy it."
The boy snatched it out of his hands. "It's not for sale."
Tobho Mott looked horror-struck. "Boy, this is the King's Hand. If his lordship wants this helm, make
him a gift of it. He honors you by asking."
"I made it for me," the boy said stubbornly.
"A hundred pardons, my lord," his master said hurriedly to Ned. "The boy is crude as new steel, and like
new steel would profit from some beating. That helm is journeyman's work at best. Forgive him and I
promise I will craft you a helm like none you have ever seen."
"He's done nothing that requires my forgiveness. Gendry, when Lord Arryn came to see you, what did
you talk about?"
"He asked me questions is all, m'lord."
"What sort of questions?"
The boy shrugged. "How was 1, and was I well treated, and if I liked the work, and stuff about my
mother. Who she was and what she looked like and all."
"What did you tell him?" Ned asked.
The boy shoved a fresh fall of black hair off his forehead. "She died when I was little. She had yellow
hair, and sometimes she used to sing to me, I remember. She worked in an alehouse."
"Did Lord Stannis question you as well?"
"The bald one? No, not him. He never said no word, just glared at me, like I was some raper who done
for his daughter."


"Mind your filthy tongue," the master said. "This is the King's own Hand." The boy lowered his eyes. "A
smart boy, but stubborn. That helm . . . the others call him bullheaded, so he threw it in their teeth."
Ned touched the boy's head, fingering the thick black hair. "Look at me, Gendry." The apprentice lifted
his face. Ned studied the shape of his jaw, the eyes like blue ice. Yes, he thought, I see it. "Go back to
your work, lad. I'm sorry to have bothered you." He walked back to the house with the master. "Who
paid the boy's apprentice fee?" he asked lightly.
Mott looked fretful. "You saw the boy. Such a strong boy. Those hands of his, those hands were made
for hammers. He had such promise, I took him on without a fee."
"The truth now," Ned urged. "The streets are full of strong boys. The day you take on an apprentice
without a fee will be the day the Wall comes down. Who paid for him?"
"A lord," the master said reluctantly. "He gave no name, and wore no sigil on his coat. He paid in gold,
twice the customary sum, and said he was paying once for the boy, and once for my silence."
"Describe him."
"He was stout, round of shoulder, not so tall as you. Brown beard, but there was a bit of red in it, I'll
swear. He wore a rich cloak, that I do remember, heavy purple velvet worked with silver threads, but the
hood shadowed his face and I never did see him clear." He hesitated a moment. "My lord, I want no
trouble."
"None of us wants trouble, but I fear these are troubled times, Master Mott," Ned said. "You know who
the boy is."
"I am only an armorer, my lord. I know what I'm told."
"You know who the boy is," Ned repeated patiently. "That is not a question."
"The boy is my apprentice," the master said. He looked Ned in the eye, stubborn as old iron. "Who he
was before he came to me, that's none of my concern."
Ned nodded. He decided that he liked Tobho Mott, master armorer. "If the day ever comes when
Gendry would rather wield a sword than forge one, send him to me. He has the look of a warrior. Until
then, you have my thanks, Master Mott, and my promise. Should I ever want a helm to frighten children,
this will be the first place I visit."
His guard was waiting outside with the horses. "Did you find anything, my lord?" Jacks asked as Ned
mounted up.
"I did," Ned told him, wondering. What had Jon Arryn wanted with a king's bastard, and why was it
worth his life?
CATELYN


My lady, you ought cover your head," Ser Rodrik told her as their horses plodded north. "You will take
a chill."
"It is only water, Ser Rodrik," Catelyn replied. Her hair hung wet and heavy, a loose strand stuck to her
forehead, and she could imagine how ragged and wild she must look, but for once she did not care. The
southern rain was soft and warm. Catelyn liked the feel of it on her face, gentle as a mother's kisses. It
took her back to her childhood, to long grey days at Riverrun. She remembered the godswood, drooping
branches heavy with moisture, and the sound of her brother's laughter as he chased her through piles of
damp leaves. She remembered making mud pies with Lysa, the weight of them, the mud slick and brown
between her fingers. They had served them to Littlefinger, giggling, and he'd eaten so much mud he was
sick for a week. How young they all had been.
Catelyn had almost forgotten. In the north, the rain fell cold and hard, and sometimes at night it turned to
ice. It was as likely to kill a crop as nurture it, and it sent grown men running for the nearest shelter. That
was no rain for little girls to play in.
"I am soaked through," Ser Rodrik complained. "Even my bones are wet." The woods pressed close
around them, and the steady pattering of rain on leaves was accompanied by the small sucking sounds
their horses made as their hooves pulled free of the mud. "We will want a fire tonight, my lady, and a hot
meal would serve us both."
"There is an inn at the crossroads up ahead," Catelyn told him. She had slept many a night there in her
youth, traveling with her father. Lord Hoster Tully had been a restless man in his prime, always riding
somewhere. She still remembered the innkeep, a fat woman named Masha Heddle who chewed sourleaf
night and day and seemed to have an endless supply of smiles and sweet cakes for the children. The
sweet cakes had been soaked with honey, rich and heavy on the tongue, but how Catelyn had dreaded
those smiles. The sourleaf had stained Masha's teeth a dark red, and made her smile a bloody horror.
"An inn," Ser Rodrik repeated wistfully. "If only . . . but we dare not risk it. If we wish to remain
unknown, I think it best we seek out some small holdfast . . ." He broke off as they heard sounds up the
road; splashing water, the clink of mail, a horse's whinny. "Riders," he warned, his hand dropping to the
hilt of his sword. Even on the kingsroad, it never hurt to be wary.
They followed the sounds around a lazy bend of the road and saw them; a column of armed men noisily
fording a swollen stream. Catelyn reined up to let them pass. The banner in the hand of the foremost rider
hung sodden and limp, but the guardsmen wore indigo cloaks and on their shoulders flew the silver eagle
of Seagard. "Mallisters," Ser Rodrik whispered to her, as if she had not known. "My lady, best pull up
your hood."
Catelyn made no move. Lord Jason Mallister himself rode with them, surrounded by his knights, his son
Patrek by his side and their squires close behind. They were riding for King's Landing and the Hand's
tourney, she knew. For the past week, the travelers had been thick as flies upon the kingsroad; knights
and freeriders, singers with their harps and drums, heavy wagons laden with hops or corn or casks of
honey, traders and craftsmen and whores, and all of them moving south.
She studied Lord Jason boldly. The last time she had seen him he had been jesting with her uncle at her
wedding feast; the Mallisters stood bannermen to the Tullys, and his gifts had been lavish. His brown hair


was salted with white now, his face chiseled gaunt by time, yet the years had not touched his pride. He
rode like a man who feared nothing. Catelyn envied him that; she had come to fear so much. As the
riders passed, Lord Jason nodded a curt greeting, but it was only a high lord's courtesy to strangers
chance met on the road. There was no recognition in those fierce eyes, and his son did not even waste a
look.
"He did not know you," Ser Rodrik said after, wondering.
"He saw a pair of mud-spattered travelers by the side of the road, wet and tired. It would never occur to
him to suspect that one of them was the daughter of his liege lord. I think we shall be safe enough at the
inn, Ser Rodrik."
It was near dark when they reached it, at the crossroads north of the great confluence of the Trident.
Masha Heddle was fatter and greyer than Catelyn remembered, still chewing her sourleaf, but she gave
them only the most cursory of looks, with nary a hint of her ghastly red smile. "Two rooms at the top of
the stair, that's all there is," she said, chewing all the while. "They're under the bell tower, you won't be
missing meals, though there's some thinks it too noisy. Can't be helped. We're full up, or near as makes
no matter. It's those rooms or the road."
It was those rooms, low, dusty garrets at the top of a cramped narrow staircase. "Leave your boots
down here," Masha told them after she'd taken their coin. "The boy will clean them. I won't have you
tracking mud up my stairs. Mind the bell. Those who come late to meals don't eat." There were no
smiles, and no mention of sweet cakes.
When the supper bell rang, the sound was deafening. Catelyn had changed into dry clothes. She sat by
the window, watching rain run down the pane. The glass was milky and full of bubbles, and a wet dusk
was falling outside. Catelyn could just make out the muddy crossing where the two great roads met.
The crossroads gave her pause. If they turned west from here, it was an easy ride down to Riverrun.
Her father had always given her wise counsel when she needed it most, and she yearned to talk to him, to
warn him of the gathering storm. If Winterfell needed to brace for war, how much more so Riverrun, so
much closer to King's Landing, with the power of Casterly Rock looming to the west like a shadow. If
only her father had been stronger, she might have chanced it, but Hoster Tully had been bedridden these
past two years, and Catelyn was loath to tax him now.
The eastern road was wilder and more dangerous, climbing through rocky foothills and thick forests into
the Mountains of the Moon, past high passes and deep chasms to the Vale of Arryn and the stony
Fingers beyond. Above the Vale, the Eyrie stood high and impregnable, its towers reaching for the sky.
There she would find her sister . . . and, perhaps, some of the answers Ned sought. Surely Lysa knew
more than she had dared to put in her letter. She might have the very proof that Ned needed to bring the
Lannisters to ruin, and if it came to
war, they would need the Arryns and the eastern lords who owed them service.
Yet the mountain road was perilous. Shadowcats prowled those passes, rock slides were common, and
the mountain clans were lawless brigands, descending from the heights to rob and kill and melting away
like snow whenever the knights rode out from the Vale in search of them. Even Jon Arryn, as great a lord


as any the Eyrie had ever known, had always traveled in strength when he crossed the mountains.
Catelyn's only strength was one elderly knight, armored in loyalty.
No, she thought, Riverrun and the Eyrie would have to wait. Her path ran north to Winterfell, where her
sons and her duty were waiting for her. As soon as they were safely past the Neck, she could declare
herself to one of Ned's bannermen, and send riders racing ahead with orders to mount a watch on the
kingsroad.
The rain obscured the fields beyond the crossroads, but Catelyn saw the land clear enough in her
memory. The marketplace was just across the way, and the village a mile farther on, half a hundred white
cottages surrounding a small stone sept. There would be more now; the summer had been long and
peaceful. North of here the kingsroad ran along the Green Fork of the Trident, through fertile valleys and
green woodlands, past thriving towns and stout holdfasts and the castles of the river lords.
Catelyn knew them all: the Blackwoods and the Brackens, ever enemies, whose quarrels her father was
obliged to settle; Lady Whent, last of her line, who dwelt with her ghosts in the cavernous vaults of
Harrenhal; irascible Lord Frey, who had outlived seven wives and filled his twin castles with children,
grandchildren, and great-grandchildren, and bastards and grandbastards as well. All of them were
bannermen to the Tullys, their swords sworn to the service of Riverrun. Catelyn wondered if that would
be enough, if it came to war. Her father was the staunchest man who'd ever lived, and she had no doubt
that he would call his banners . . . but would the banners come? The Darrys and Rygers and Mootons
had sworn oaths to Riverrun as well, yet they had fought with Rhaegar Targaryen on the Trident, while
Lord Frey had arrived with his levies well after the battle was over, leaving some doubt as to which army
he had planned to join (theirs, he had assured the victors solemnly in the aftermath, but ever after her
father had called him the Late Lord Frey). It must not come to war, Catelyn thought fervently. They must
not let it.
Ser Rodrik came for her just as the bell ceased its clangor. "We had best make haste if we hope to eat
tonight, my lady."
"It might be safer if we were not knight and lady until we pass the
Neck," she told him. "Common travelers attract less notice. A father and daughter taken to the road on
some family business, say."
"As you say, my lady," Ser Rodrik agreed. It was only when she laughed that he realized what he'd
done. "The old courtesies die hard, my-my daughter." He tried to tug on his missing whiskers, and sighed
with exasperation.
Catelyn took his arm. "Come, Father," she said. "You'll find that Masha Heddle sets a good table, I
think, but try not to praise her. You truly don't want to see her smile."
The common room was long and drafty, with a row of huge wooden kegs at one end and a fireplace at
the other. A serving boy ran back and forth with skewers of meat while Masha drew beer from the kegs,
chewing her sourleaf all the while.
The benches were crowded, townsfolk and farmers mingling freely with all manner of travelers. The
crossroads made for odd companions; dyers with black and purple hands shared a bench with rivermen
reeking of fish, an ironsmith thick with muscle squeezed in beside a wizened old septon, hard-bitten


sellswords and soft plump merchants swapped news like boon companions.
The company included more swords than Catelyn would have liked. Three by the fire wore the red
stallion badge of the Brackens, and there was a large party in blue steel ringmail and capes of a silvery
grey. On their shoulder was another familiar sigil, the twin towers of House Frey. She studied their faces,
but they were all too young to have known her. The senior among them would have been no older than
Bran when she went north.
Ser Rodrik found them an empty place on the bench near the kitchen. Across the table a handsome
youth was fingering a woodharp. "Seven blessings to you, goodfolk," he said as they sat. An empty wine
cup stood on the table before him.
"And to you, singer," Catelyn returned. Ser Rodrik called for bread and meat and beer in a tone that
meant now. The singer, a youth of some eighteen years, eyed them boldly and asked where they were
going, and from whence they had come, and what news they had, letting the questions fly as quick as
arrows and never pausing for an answer. "We left King's Landing a fortnight ago," Catelyn replied,
answering the safest of his questions.
"That's where I'm bound," the youth said. As she had suspected, he was more interested in telling his
own story than in hearing theirs. Singers loved nothing half so well as the sound of their own voices. "The
Hand's tourney means rich lords with fat purses. The last time I
came away with more silver than I could carry ... or would have, if I hadn't lost it all betting on the
Kingslayer to win the day."
"The gods frown on the gambler," Ser Rodrik said sternly. He was of the north, and shared the Stark
views on tournaments.
"They frowned on me, for certain," the singer said. "Your cruel gods and the Knight of Flowers
altogether did me in."
"No doubt that was a lesson for you," Ser Rodrik said.
"It was. This time my coin will champion Ser Loras."
Ser Rodrik tried to tug at whiskers that were not there, but before he could frame a rebuke the serving
boy came scurrying up. He laid trenchers of bread before them and filled them with chunks of browned
meat off a skewer, dripping with hot juice. Another skewer held tiny onions, fire peppers, and fat
mushrooms. Ser Rodrik set to lustily as the lad ran back to fetch them beer.
"My name is Marillion," the singer said, plucking a string on his woodharp. "Doubtless you've heard me
play somewhere?"
His manner made Catelyn smile. Few wandering singers ever ventured as far north as Winterfell, but she
knew his like from her girlhood in Riverrun. "I fear not," she told him.
He drew a plaintive chord from the woodharp. "That is your loss," he said. "Who was the finest singer
you've ever heard?"


"Alia of Braavos," Ser Rodrik answered at once.
"Oh, I'm much better than that old stick," Marillion said. "If you have the silver for a song, I'll gladly
show you."
"I might have a copper or two, but I'd sooner toss it down a well than pay for your howling," Ser Rodrik
groused. His opinion of singers was well known; music was a lovely thing for girls, but he could not
comprehend why any healthy boy would fill his hand with a harp when he might have had a sword.
"Your grandfather has a sour nature," Marillion said to Catelyn. "I meant to do you honor. An homage to
your beauty. In truth, I was made to sing for kings and high lords."
"Oh, I can see that," Catelyn said. "Lord Tully is fond of song, I hear. No doubt you've been to
Riverrun."
"A hundred times," the singer said airily. "They keep a chamber for me, and the young lord is like a
brother."
Catelyn smiled, wondering what Edmure would think of that. Another singer had once bedded a girl her
brother fancied; he had hated the breed ever since. "And Winterfell?" she asked him. "Have you traveled
north?"
"Why would IT' Marillion asked. "It's all blizzards and bearskins up there, and the Starks know no music
but the howling of wolves."
Distantly, she was aware of the door banging open at the far end of the room.
"Innkeep," a servant's voice called out behind her, "we have horses that want stabling, and my lord of
Lannister requires a room and a hot bath."
"Oh, gods," Ser Rodrik said before Catelyn reached out to silence him, her fingers tightening hard
around his forearm.
Masha Heddle was bowing and smiling her hideous red smile. "I'm sorry, m'lord, truly, we're full up,
every room."
There were four of them, Catelyn saw. An old man in the black of the Night's Watch, two servants . . .
and him, standing there small and bold as life. "My men will steep in your stable, and as for myself, well, I
do not require a large room, as you can plainly see." He flashed a mocking grin. "So long as the fire's
warm and the straw reasonably free of fleas, I am a happy man."
Masha Heddle was beside herself. "M'lord, there's nothing, it's the tourney, there's no help for it, oh . . ."
Tyrion Lannister pulled a coin from his purse and flicked it up over his head, caught it, tossed it again.
Even across the room, where Catelyn sat, the wink of gold was unmistakable.
A freerider in a faded blue cloak lurched to his feet. "You're welcome to my room, m'lord."
"Now there's a clever man," Lannister said as he sent the coin spinning across the room. The freerider


snatched it from the air. "And a nimble one to boot." The dwarf turned back to Masha Heddle. "You will
be able to manage food, I trust?"
"Anything you like, m1ord, anything at all," the innkeep promised. And may he choke on it, Catelyn
thought, but it was Bran she saw choking, drowning on his own blood.
Lannister glanced at the nearest tables. "My men will have whatever you're serving these people. Double
portions, we've had a long hard ride. I'll take a roast fowl-chicken, duck, pigeon, it makes no matter.
And send up a flagon of your best wine. Yoren, will you sup with me?"
"Aye, m1ord, I will," the black brother replied.
The dwarf had not so much as glanced toward the far end of the room, and Catelyn was thinking how
grateful she was for the crowded benches between them when suddenly Marillion bounded to his feet.
"My lord of Lannister!" he called out. "I would be pleased to entertain you while you eat. Let me sing you
the lay of your father's great victory at King's Landing!"
"Nothing would be more likely to ruin my supper," the dwarf said
dryly. His mismatched eyes considered the singer briefly, started to move away . . . and found Catelyn.
He looked at her for a moment, puzzled. She turned her face away, but too late. The dwarf was smiling.
"Lady Stark, what an unexpected pleasure," he said. "I was sorry to miss you at Winterfell."
Marillion gaped at her, confusion giving way to chagrin as Catelyn rose slowly to her feet. She heaTd
SeT Rodrik curse. If only the man had lingered at the Wall, she thought, if only . . .
"Lady . . . Stark?" Masha Heddle said thickly.
"I was still Catelyn Tully the last time I bedded here," she told the innkeep. She could hear the muttering,
feel the eyes upon her. Catelyn glanced around the room, at the faces of the knights and sworn swords,
and took a deep breath to slow the frantic beating of her heart. Did she dare take the risk? There was no
time to think it through, only the moment and the sound of her own voice ringing in her ears. "You in the
corner," she said to an older man she had not noticed until now. "Is that the black bat of Harrenhal I see
embroidered on your surcoat, ser?"
The man got to his feet. "It is, my lady."
"And is Lady Whent a true and honest friend to my father, Lord Hoster Tully of Riverrun?"
"She is," the man replied stoutly.
Ser Rodrik rose quietly and loosened his sword in its scabbard. The dwarf was blinking at them,
blank-faced, with puzzlement in his mismatched eyes.
"The red stallion was ever a welcome sight in Riverrun," she said to the trio by the fire. "My father counts
Jonos Bracken among his oldest and most loyal bannermen."
The three men-at-arms exchanged uncertain looks. "Our lord is honored by his trust," one of them said
hesitantly.


"I envy your father all these fine friends," Lannister quipped, "but I do not quite see the purpose of this,
Lady Stark."
She ignored him, turning to the large party in blue and grey. They were the heart of the matter; there
were more than twenty of them. "I know your sigil as well: the twin towers of Frey. How fares your good
lord, sers?"
Their captain rose. "Lord Walder is well, my lady. He plans to take a new wife on his ninetieth name
day, and has asked your lord father to honor the wedding with his presence."
Tyrion Lannister sniggered. That was when Catelyn knew he was hers. "This man came a guest into my
house, and there conspired to murder my son, a boy of seven," she proclaimed to the room at large,
I
pointing. Ser Rodrik moved to her side, his sword in hand. "In the name of King Robert and the good
lords you serve, I call upon you to seize him and help me return him to Winterfell to await the king's
justice."
She did not know what was more satisfying: the sound of a dozen swords drawn as one or the look on
Tyrion Lannister's face.
SANSA
Sansa rode to the Hand's tourney with Septa Mordane and Jeyne Poole, in a litter with curtains of
yellow silk so fine she could see right through them. They turned the whole world gold. Beyond the city
walls, a hundred pavilions had been raised beside the river, and the common folk came out in the
thousands to watch the games. The splendor of it all took Sansa's breath away; the shining armor, the
great chargers caparisoned in silver and gold, the shouts of the crowd, the banners snapping in the wind .
. . and the knights themselves, the knights most of all.
"It is better than the songs," she whispered when they found the places that her father had promised her,
among the high lords and ladies. Sansa was dressed beautifully that day, in a green gown that brought out
the auburn of her hair, and she knew they were looking at her and smiling.
They watched the heroes of a hundred songs ride forth, each more fabulous than the last. The seven
knights of the Kingsguard took the field, all but Jaime Lannister in scaled armor the color of milk, their
cloaks as white as freshfallen snow. Ser Jaime wore the white cloak as well, but beneath it he was shining
gold from head to foot, with a lion'shead helm and a golden sword. Ser Gregor Clegane, the Mountain
That Rides, thundered past them like an avalanche. Sansa remembered Lord Yohn Royce, who had
guested at Winterfell two years
260 GLORGL R.R. MARTIN
before. "His armor is bronze, thousands and thousands of years old, engraved with magic runes that
ward him against harm," she whispered to Jeyne. Septa Mordane pointed out Lord Jason Mallister, in


indigo chased with silver, the wings of an eagle on his helm. He had cut down three of Rhaegar's
bannermen on the Trident. The girls giggled over the warrior priest Thoros of Myr, with his flapping red
robes and shaven head, until the septa told them that he had once scaled the walls of Pyke with a flaming
sword in hand.
Other riders Sansa did not know; hedge knights from the Fingers and Highgarden and the mountains of
Dorne, unsung freeriders and new-made squires, the younger sons of high lords and the heirs of lesser
houses. Younger men, most had done no great deeds as yet, but Sansa and Jeyne agreed that one day
the Seven Kingdoms would resound to the sound of their names. Ser Balon Swann. Lord Bryce Caron
of the Marches. Bronze Yohn's heir, Ser Andar Royce, and his younger brother Ser Robar, their silvered
steel plate filigreed in bronze with the same ancient runes that warded their father. The twins Ser Horas
and Ser Hobber, whose shields displayed the grape cluster sigil of the Redwynes, burgundy on blue.
Patrek Mallister, Lord Jason's son. Six Freys of the Crossing: Ser Jared, Ser Hosteen, Ser Danwell, Ser
Emmon, Ser Theo, Ser Perwyn, sons and grandsons of old Lord Walder Frey, and his bastard son
Martyn Rivers as well.
Jeyne Poole confessed herself frightened by the look of Jalabhar Xho, an exile prince from the Summer
Isles who wore a cape of green and scarlet feathers over skin as dark as night, but when she saw young
Lord Beric Dondarrion, with his hair like red gold and his black shield slashed by lightning, she
pronounced herself willing to marry him on the instant.
The Hound entered the lists as well, and so too the king's brother, handsome Lord Renly of Storm's
End. Jory, Alyn, and Harwin rode for Winterfell and the north. "Jory looks a beggar among these others,"
Septa Mordane sniffed when he appeared. Sansa could only agree. Jory's armor was blue-grey plate
without device or ornament, and a thin grey cloak hung from his shoulders like a soiled rag. Yet he
acquitted himself well, unhorsing Horas Redwyne in his first joust and one of the Freys in his second. In
his third match, he rode three passes at a freerider named Lothor Brune whose armor was as drab as his
own. Neither man lost his seat, but Brune's lance was steadier and his blows better placed, and the king
gave him the victory. Alyn and Harwin fared less well; Harwin was unhorsed in his first tilt by Ser Meryn
of the Kingsguard, while Alyn fell to Ser Balon Swann.
The jousting went all day and into the dusk, the hooves of the great
warhorses pounding down the lists until the field was a ragged wasteland of torn earth. A dozen times
Jeyne and Sansa cried out in unison as riders crashed together, lances exploding into splinters while the
commons screamed for their favorites. Jeyne covered her eyes whenever a man fell, like a frightened little
girl, but Sansa was made of sterner stuff. A great lady knew how to behave at tournaments. Even Septa
Mordane noted her composure and nodded in approval.
The Kingslayer rode brilliantly. He overthrew Ser Andar Royce and the Marcher Lord Bryce Caron as
easily as if he were riding at rings, and then took a hard-fought match from white-haired Barristan Selmy,
who had won his first two tilts against men thirty and forty years his junior.
Sandor Clegane and his immense brother, Ser Gregor the Mountain, seemed unstoppable as well, riding
down one foe after the next in ferocious style. The most terrifying moment of the day came during Ser
Gregor's second joust, when his lance rode up and struck a young knight from the Vale under the gorget
with such force that it drove through his throat, killing him instantly. The youth fell not ten feet from where
Sansa was seated. The point of Ser Gregor's lance had snapped off in his neck, and his life's blood
flowed out in slow pulses, each weaker than the one before. His armor was shiny new; a bright streak of


fire ran down his outstretched arm, as the steel caught the light. Then the sun went behind a cloud, and it
was gone. His cloak was blue, the color of the sky on a clear summer's day, trimmed with a border of
crescent moons, but as his blood seeped into it, the cloth darkened and the moons turned red, one by
one.
Jeyne Poole wept so hysterically that Septa Mordane finally took her off to regain her composure, but
Sansa sat with her hands folded in her lap, watching with a strange fascination. She had never seen a man
die before. She ought to be crying too, she thought, but the tears would not come. Perhaps she had used
up all her tears for Lady and Bran. It would be different if it had been Jory or Ser Rodrik or Father, she
told herself. The young knight in the blue cloak was nothing to her, some stranger from the Vale of Arryn
whose name she had forgotten as soon as she heard it. And now the world would forget his name too,
Sansa realized; there would be no songs sung for him. That was sad.
After they carried off the body, a boy with a spade ran onto the field and shoveled dirt over the spot
where he had fallen, to cover up the blood. Then the jousts resumed.
Ser Balon Swann also fell to Gregor, and Lord Renly to the Hound. Renly was unhorsed so violently
that he seemed to fly backward off his charger, legs in the air. His head hit the ground with an audible
crack
that made the crowd gasp, but it was just the golden antler on his helm. One of the tines had snapped off
beneath him. When Lord Renly climbed to his feet, the commons cheered wildly, for King Robert's
handsome young brother was a great favorite. He handed the broken tine to his conqueror with a
gracious bow. The Hound snorted and tossed the broken antler into the crowd, where the commons
began to punch and claw over the little bit of gold, until Lord Renly walked out among them and restored
the peace. By then Septa Mordane had returned, alone. Jeyne had been feeling ill, she explained; she had
helped her back to the castle. Sansa had almost forgotten about Jeyne.
Later a hedge knight in a checkered cloak disgraced himself by killing Beric Dondarrion's horse, and
was declared forfeit. Lord Beric shifted his saddle to a new mount, only to be knocked right off it by
Thoros of Myr. Ser Aron Santagar and Lothor Brune tilted thrice without result; Ser Aron fell afterward
to Lord Jason Mallister, and Brune to Yohn Royce's younger son, Robar.
In the end it came down to four; the Hound and his monstrous brother Gregor, Jaime Lannister the
Kingslayer, and Ser Loras Tyrell, the youth they called the Knight of Flowers.
Ser Loras was the youngest son of Mace Tyrell, the Lord of Highgarden and Warden of the South. At
sixteen, he was the youngest rider on the field, yet he had unhorsed three knights of the Kingsguard that
morning in his first three jousts. Sansa had never seen anyone so beautiful. His plate was intricately
fashioned and enameled as a bouquet of a thousand different flowers, and his snow-white stallion was
draped in a blanket of red and white roses. After each victory, Ser Loras would remove his helm and
ride slowly round the fence, and finally pluck a single white rose from the blanket and toss it to some fair
maiden in the crowd.
His last match of the day was against the younger Royce. Ser Robar's ancestral runes proved small
protection as Ser Loras split his shield and drove him from his saddle to crash with an awful clangor in
the dirt. Robar lay moaning as the victor made his circuit of the field. Finally they called for a litter and
carried him off to his tent, dazed and unmoving. Sansa never saw it. Her eyes were only for Ser Loras.
When the white horse stopped in front of her, she thought her heart would burst.


To the other maidens he had given white roses, but the one he plucked for her was red. "Sweet lady," he
said, "no victory is half so beautiful as you." Sansa took the flower timidly, struck dumb by his gallantry.
His hair was a mass of lazy brown curls, his eyes like liquid
gold. She inhaled the sweet fragrance of the rose and sat clutching it long after Ser Loras had ridden off.
When Sansa finally looked up, a man was standing over her, staring. He was short, with a pointed beard
and a silver streak in his hair, almost as old as her father. "You must be one of her daughters," he said to
her. He had grey-green eyes that did not smile when his mouth did. "You have the Tully look."
"I'm Sansa Stark," she said, ill at ease. The man wore a heavy cloak with a fur collar, fastened with a
silver mockingbird, and he had the effortless manner of a high lord, but she did not know him. "I have not
had the honor, my lord."
Septa Mordane quickly took a hand. "Sweet child, this is Lord Petyr Baelish, of the king's small
council."
"Your mother was my queen of beauty once," the man said quietly. His breath smelled of mint. "You
have her hair." His fingers brushed against her cheek as he stroked one auburn lock. Quite abruptly he
turned and walked away.
By then, the moon was well up and the crowd was tired, so the king decreed that the last three matches
would be fought the next morning, before the melee. While the commons began their walk home, talking
of the day's jousts and the matches to come on the morrow, the court moved to the riverside to begin the
feast. Six monstrous huge aurochs had been roasting for hours, turning slowly on wooden spits while
kitchen boys basted them with butter and herbs until the meat crackled and spit. Tables and benches had
been raised outside the pavilions, piled high with sweetgrass and strawberries and fresh-baked bread.
Sansa and Septa Mordane were given places of high honor, to the left of the raised dais where the king
himself sat beside his queen. When Prince Joffrey seated himself to her right, she felt her throat tighten.
He had not spoken a word to her since the awful thing had happened, and she had not dared to speak to
him. At first she thought she hated him for what they'd done to Lady, but after Sansa had wept her eyes
dry, she told herself that it had not been Joffrey's doing, not truly. The queen had done it; she was the one
to hate, her and Arya. Nothing bad would have happened except for Arya.
She could not hate Joffrey tonight. He was too beautiful to hate. He wore a deep blue doublet studded
with a double row of golden lion's heads, and around his brow a slim coronet made of gold and
sapphires. His hair was as bright as the metal. Sansa looked at him and trembled, afraid that he might
ignore her or, worse, turn hateful again and send her weeping from the table.
Instead Joffrey smiled and kissed her hand, handsome and gallant
as any prince in the songs, and said, "Ser Loras has a keen eye for beauty, sweet lady."
"He was too kind," she demurred, trying to remain modest and calm, though her heart was singing. "Ser
Loras is a true knight. Do you think he will win tomorrow, my lord?"


"No," Jofftey said. "My dog will do for him, or perhaps my uncle Jaime. And in a few years, when I am
old enough to enter the lists, I shall do for them all." He raised his hand to summon a servant with a flagon
of iced surnmerwine, and poured her a cup. She looked anxiously at Septa Mordane, until Jofftey leaned
over and filled the septa's cup as well, so she nodded and thanked him graciously and said not another
word.
The servants kept the cups filled all night, yet afterward Sansa could not recall ever tasting the wine. She
needed no wine. She was drunk on the magic of the night, giddy with glamour, swept away by beauties
she had dreamt of all her life and never dared hope to know. Singers sat before the king's pavilion, filling
the dusk with music. A juggler kept a cascade of burning clubs spinning through the air. The king's own
fool, the pie-faced simpleton called Moon Boy, danced about on stilts, all in motley, making mock of
everyone with such deft cruelty that Sansa wondered if he was simple after all. Even Septa Mordane was
helpless before him; when he sang his little song about the High Septon, she laughed so hard she spilled
wine on herself.
And Joffrey was the soul of courtesy. He talked to Sansa all night, showering her with compliments,
making her laugh, sharing little bits of court gossip, explaining Moon Boy's japes. Sansa was so
captivated that she quite forgot all her courtesies and ignored Septa Mordane, seated to her left.
All the while the courses came and went. A thick soup of barley and venison. Salads of sweetgrass and
spinach and plums, sprinkled with crushed nuts. Snails in honey and garlic. Sansa had never eaten snails
before; Jofftey showed her how to get the snail out of the shell, and fed her the first sweet morsel himself.
Then came trout fresh from the river, baked in clay; her prince helped her crack open the hard casing to
expose the flaky white flesh within. And when the meat course was brought out, he served her himself,
slicing a queen's portion from the joint, smiling as he laid it on her plate. She could see from the way he
moved that his right arm was still troubling him, yet he uttered not a word of complaint.
Later came sweetbreads and pigeon pie and baked apples fragrant with cinnamon and lemon cakes
frosted in sugar, but by then Sansa was so stuffed that she could not manage more than two little lemon
cakes, as much as she loved them. She was wondering whether she might attempt a third when the king
began to shout.
King Robert had grown louder with each course. From time to time Sansa could hear him laughing or
roaring a command over the music and the clangor of plates and cutlery, but they were too far away for
her to make out his words.
Now everybody heard him. "No, " he thundered in a voice that drowned out all other speech. Sansa
was shocked to see the king on his feet, red of face, reeling. He had a goblet of wine in one hand, and he
was drunk as a man could be. "You do not tell me what to do, woman," he screamed at Queen Cersei. "I
am king here, do you understand? I rule here, and if I say that I will fight tomorrow, I will fight!"
Everyone was staring. Sansa saw Ser Barristan, and the king's brother Renly, and the short man who
had talked to her so oddly and touched her hair, but no one made a move to interfere. The queen's face
was a mask, so bloodless that it might have been sculpted from snow. She rose from the table, gathered
her skirts around her, and stormed off in silence, servants trailing behind.
Jaime Lannister put a hand on the king's shoulder, but the king shoved him away hard. Lannister


stumbled and fell. The king guffawed. "The great knight. I can still knock you in the dirt. Remember that,
Kingslayer." He slapped his chest with the jeweled goblet, splashing wine all over his satin tunic. "Give
me my hammer and not a man in the realm can stand before me!"
Jaime Lannister rose and brushed himself off. "As you say, Your Grace." His voice was stiff.
Lord Renly came forward, smiling. "You've spilled your wine, Robert. Let me bring you a fresh goblet."
Sansa started as Joffrey laid his hand on her arm. "It grows late," the prince said. He had a queer look
on his face, as if he were not seeing her at all. "Do you need an escort back to the castle?"
"No," Sansa began. She looked for Septa Mordane, and was startled to find her with her head on the
table, snoring soft and ladylike snores. "I mean to say . . . yes, thank you, that would be most kind. I am
tired, and the way is so dark. I should be glad for some protection."
Joffrey called out, "Dog!"
Sandor Clegane seemed to take form out of the night, so quickly did he appear. He had exchanged his
armor for a red woolen tunic with a leather dog's head sewn on the front. The light of the torches made
his burned face shine a dull red. "Yes, Your Grace?" he said.
"Take my betrothed back to the castle, and see that no harm befalls
her," the prince told him brusquely. And without even a word of farewell, Joffrey strode off, leaving her
there.
Sansa could feel the Hound watching her. "Did you think Joff was going to take you himself?" He
laughed. He had a laugh like the snarling of dogs in a pit. "Small chance of that." He pulled her unresisting
to her feet. "Come, you're not the only one needs sleep. I've drunk too much, and I may need to kill my
brother tomorrow." He laughed again.
Suddenly terrified, Sansa pushed at Septa Mordane's shoulder, hoping to wake her, but she only snored
the louder. King Robert had stumbled off and half the benches were suddenly empty. The feast was over,
and the beautiful dream had ended with it.
The Hound snatched up a torch to light their way. Sansa followed close beside him. The ground was
rocky and uneven; the flickering light made it seem to shift and move beneath her. She kept her eyes
lowered, watching where she placed her feet. They walked among the pavilions, each with its banner and
its armor hung outside, the silence weighing heavier with every step. Sansa could not bear the sight of
him, he frightened her so, yet she had been raised in all the ways of courtesy. A true lady would not
notice his face, she told herself. "You rode gallantly today, Ser Sandor," she made herself say.
Sandor Clegane snarled at her. "Spare me your empty little compliments, girl . . . and your ser's. I am no
knight. I spit on them and their vows. My brother is a knight. Did you see him ride today?"
"Yes," Sansa whispered, trembling. "He was
"Gallant?" the Hound finished.


He was mocking her, she realized. "No one could withstand him," she managed at last, proud of herself.
It was no lie.
Sandor Clegane stopped suddenly in the middle of a dark and empty field. She had no choice but to
stop beside him. "Some septa trained you well. You're like one of those birds from the Summer Isles,
aren't you? A pretty little talking -bird, repeating all the pretty little words they taught you to recite."
"That's unkind." Sansa could feel her heart fluttering in her chest. "You're frightening me. I want to go
now."
"No one could withstand him, " the Hound rasped. "That's truth enough. No one could ever withstand
Gregor. That boy today, his second joust, oh, that was a pretty bit of business. You saw that, did you?
Fool boy, he had no business riding in this company. No money, no squire, no one to help him with that
armor. That gorget wasn't fastened proper. You think Gregor didn't notice that? You think Ser Gregor's
lance rode up by chance, do you? Pretty little talking girl, you
believe that, you're empty-headed as a bird for true. Gregor's lance goes where Gregor wants it to go.
Look at me. Look at me!" Sandor Clegane put a huge hand under her chin and forced her face up. He
squatted in front of her, and moved the torch close. "There's a pretty for you. Take a good long stare.
You know you want to. I've watched you turning away all the way down the kingsroad. Piss on that.
Take your look."
His fingers held her jaw as hard as an iron trap. His eyes watched hers. Drunken eyes, sullen with anger.
She had to look.
The right side of his face was gaunt, with sharp cheekbones and a grey eye beneath a heavy brow. His
nose was large and hooked, his hair thin, dark. He wore it long and brushed it sideways, because no hair
grew on the other side of that face.
The left side of his face was a ruin. His ear had been burned away; there was nothing left but a hole. His
eye was still good, but all around it was a twisted mass of scar, slick black flesh hard as leather, pocked
with craters and fissured by deep cracks that gleamed red and wet when he moved. Down by his jaw,
you could see a hint of bone where the flesh had been seared away.
Sansa began to cry. He let go of her then, and snuffed out the torch in the dirt. "No pretty words for
that, girl? No little compliment the septa taught you?" When there was no answer, he continued. "Most of
them, they think it was some battle. A siege, a burning tower, an enemy with a torch. One fool asked if it
was dragonsbreath." His laugh was softer this time, but just as bitter. "I'll tell you what it was, girl," he
said, a voice from the night, a shadow leaning so close now that she could smell the sour stench of wine
on his breath. "I was younger than you, six, maybe seven. A woodcarver set up shop in the village under
my father's keep, and to buy favor he sent us gifts. The old man made marvelous toys. I don't remember
what I got, but it was Gregor's gift I wanted. A wooden knight, all painted up, every joint pegged
separate and fixed with strings, so you could make him fight. Gregor is five years older than me, the toy
was nothing to him, he was already a squire, near six foot tall and muscled like an ox. So I took his
knight, but there was no joy to it, I tell you. I was scared all the while, and true enough, he found me.
There was a brazier in the room. Gregor never said a word, just picked me up under his arm and shoved
the side of my face down in the burning coals and held me there while I screamed and screamed. You
saw how strong he is. Even then, it took three grown men to drag him off me. The septons preach about
the seven hells. What do they know? Only a man who's been burned knows what hell is truly like.


268
GEORGE R.R. MARTIN
"My father told everyone my bedding had caught fire, and our maester gave me ointments. Ointments!
Gregor got his ointments too. Four years later, they anointed him with the seven oils and he recited his
knightly vows and Rhaegar Targaryen tapped him on the shoulder and said, 'Arise, Ser Gregor.' "
The rasping voice trailed off. He squatted silently before her, a hulking black shape shrouded in the night,
hidden from her eyes. Sansa could hear his ragged breathing. She was sad for him, she realized.
Somehow, the fear had gone away.
The silence went on and on, so long that she began to grow afraid once more, but she was afraid for him
now, not for herself. She found his massive shoulder with her hand. "He was no true knight," she
whispered to him.
The Hound threw back his head and roared. Sansa stumbled back, away from him, but he caught her
arm. "No," he growled at her, "no, little bird, he was no true knight."
The rest of the way into the city, Sandor Clegane said not a word. He led her to where the carts were
waiting, told a driver to take them back to the Red Keep, and climbed in after her. They rode in silence
through the King's Gate and up torchlit city streets. He opened the postern door and led her into the
castle, his burned face twitching and his eyes brooding, and he was one step behind her as they climbed
the tower stairs. He took her safe all the way to the corridor outside her bedchamber.
"Thank you, my lord," Sansa said meekly.
The Hound caught her by the arm and leaned close. "The things I told you tonight," he said, his voice
sounding even rougher than usual. "If you ever tell Joffrey.... your sister, your father. . . any of them . . ."
"I won't," Sansa whispered. "I promise."
It was not enough. "If you ever tell anyone," he finished, "I'll kill you."
EDDARD
"I stood last vigil for him myself," Ser Barristan Selmy said as they looked down at the body in the back
of the cart. "He had no one else. A mother in the Vale, I am told."
In the pale dawn light, the young knight looked as though he were sleeping. He had not been handsome,
but death had smoothed his rough-hewn features and the silent sisters had dressed him in his best velvet
tunic, with a high collar to cover the ruin the lance had made of his throat. Eddard Stark looked at his
face, and wondered if it had been for his sake that the boy had died. Slain by a Lannister bannerman
before Ned could speak to him; could that be mere happenstance? He supposed he would never know.
"Hugh was Jon Arryn's squire for four years," Selmy went on. "The king knighted him before he rode
north, in Jon's memory. The lad wanted it desperately, yet I fear he was not ready."


Ned had slept badly last night and he felt tired beyond his years. "None of us is ever ready," he said.
"For knighthood?"
"For death." Gently Ned covered the boy with his cloak, a bloodstained bit of blue bordered in crescent
moons. When his mother asked why her son was dead, he reflected bitterly, they would tell her he had
fought to honor the King's Hand, Eddard Stark. "This was needless. War should not be a game." Ned
turned to the woman beside
the cart, shrouded in grey, face hidden but for her eyes. The silent sisters prepared men for the grave,
and it was ill fortune to look on the face of death. "Send his armor home to the Vale. The mother will
want to have it."
"It is worth a fair piece of silver," Ser Barristan said. "The boy had it forged special for the tourney. Plain
work, but good. I do not know if he had finished paying the smith."
"He paid yesterday, my lord, and he paid dearly," Ned replied. And to the silent sister he said, "Send the
mother the armor. I will deal with this smith." She bowed her head.
Afterward Ser Barristan walked with Ned to the king's pavilion. The camp was beginning to stir. Fat
sausages sizzled and spit over firepits, spicing the air with the scents of garlic and pepper. Young squires
hurried about on errands as their masters woke, yawning and stretching, to meet the day. A serving man
with a goose under his arm bent his knee when he caught sight of them. "NI'lords," he muttered as the
goose honked and pecked at his fingers. The shields displayed outside each tent heralded its occupant:
the silver eagle of Seagard, Bryce Caron's field of nightingales, a cluster of grapes for the Redwynes,
brindled boar, red ox, burning tree, white ram, triple spiral, purple unicorn, dancing maiden, blackadder,
twin towers, horned owl, and last the pure white blazons of the Kingsguard, shining like the dawn.
"The king means to fight in the melee today," Ser Barristan said as they were passing Ser Meryn's shield,
its paint sullied by a deep gash where Loras Tyrell's lance had scarred the wood as he drove him from his
saddle.
"Yes," Ned said grimly. Jory had woken him last night to bring him that news. Small wonder he had slept
so badly.
Ser Barristan's look was troubled. "They say night's beauties fade at dawn, and the children of wine are
oft disowned in the morning light."
"They say so," Ned agreed, "but not of Robert." Other men might reconsider words spoken in drunken
bravado, but Robert Baratheon would remember and, remembering, would never back down.
The king's pavilion was close by the water, and the morning mists off the river had wreathed it in wisps
of grey. It was all of golden silk, the largest and grandest structure in the camp. Outside the entrance,
Robert's warhammer was displayed beside an immense iron shield blazoned with the crowned stag of
House Baratheon.
Ned had hoped to discover the king still abed in a wine-soaked sleep, but luck was not with him. They
found Robert drinking beer from a polished horn and roaring his displeasure at two young squires who
were trying to buckle him into his armor. "Your Grace," one was


saying, almost in tears, "it's made too small, it won't go." He fumbled, and the gorget he was trying to fit
around Robert's thick neck tumbled to the ground.
"Seven hells!" Robert swore. "Do I have to do it myself? Piss on the both of you. Pick it up. Don't just
stand there gaping, Lance], pick it up!" The lad jumped, and the king noticed his company. "Look at
these oafs, Ned. My wife insisted I take these two to squire for me, and they're worse than useless. Can't
even put a man's armor on him properly. Squires, they say. I say they're swineherds dressed up in silk."
Ned only needed a glance to understand the difficulty. "The boys are not at fault," he told the king.
"You're too fat for your armor, Robert."
Robert Baratheon took a long swallow of beer, tossed the empty horn onto his sleeping furs, wiped his
mouth with the back of his hand, and said darkly, "Fat? Fat, is it? Is that how you speak to your king?"
He let go his laughter, sudden as a storm. "Ah, damn you, Ned, why are you always right?"
The squires smiled nervously until the king turned on them. "You. Yes, both of you. You heard the
Hand. The king is too fat for his armor. Go find Ser Aron Santagar. Tell him I need the breastplate
stretcher. Now! What are you waiting for?"
The boys tripped over each other in their haste to be quit of the tent. Robert managed to keep a stern
face until they were gone. Then he dropped back into a chair, shaking with laughter.
Ser Barristan Selmy chuckled with him. Even Eddard Stark managed a smile. Always, though, the
graver thoughts crept in. He could not help taking note of the two squires: handsome boys, fair and well
made. One was Sansa's age, with long golden curls; the other perhaps fifteen, sandy-haired, with a wisp
of a mustache and the emerald-green eyes of the queen.
"Ah, I wish I could be there to see Santagar's face," Robert said. "I hope he'll have the wit to send them
to someone else. We ought to keep them running all day!"
"Those boys," Ned asked him. "Lannisters?"
Robert nodded, wiping tears from his eyes. "Cousins. Sons of Lord Tywin's brother. One of the dead
ones. Or perhaps the live one, now that I come to think on it. I don't recall. My wife comes from a very
large family, Ned."
A very ambitious family, Ned thought. He had nothing against the squires, but it troubled him to see
Robert surrounded by the queen's kin, waking and sleeping. The Lannister appetite for offices and honors
seemed to know no bounds. "The talk is you and the queen had angry words last night."
The mirth curdled on Robert's face. "The woman tried to forbid me to fight in the melee. She's sulking in
the castle now, damn her. Your sister would never have shamed me like that."
"You never knew Lyanna as I did, Robert," Ned told him. "You saw her beauty, but not the iron
underneath. She would have told you that you have no business in the melee."


"You too?" The king frowned. "You are a sour man, Stark. Too long in the north, all the juices have
frozen inside you. Well, mine are still running." He slapped his chest to prove it.
"You are the king," Ned reminded him.
"I sit on the damn iron seat when I must. Does that mean I don't have the same hungers as other men? A
bit of wine now and again, a girl squealing in bed, the feel of a horse between my legs? Seven hells, Ned,
I want to hit someone."
Ser Barristan Selmy spoke up. "Your Grace," he said, "it is not seemly that the king should ride into the
melee. It would not be a fair contest. Who would dare strike you?"
Robert seemed honestly taken aback. "Why, all of them, damn it. If they can. And the last man left
standing . . ."
". . . will be you," Ned finished. He saw at once that Selmy had hit the mark. The dangers of the melee
were only a savor to Robert, but this touched on his pride. "Ser Barristan is right. There's not a man in
the Seven Kingdoms who would dare risk your displeasure by hurting
YOU."
The king rose to his feet, his face flushed. "Are you telling me those prancing cravens will let me win?"
"For a certainty," Ned said, and Ser Barristan Selmy bowed his head in silent accord.
For a moment Robert was so angry he could not speak. He strode across the tent, whirled, strode back,
his face dark and angry. He snatched up his breastplate from the ground and threw it at Barristan Selmy
in a wordless fury. Selmy dodged. "Get out," the king said then, coldly. "Get out before I kill you."
Ser Barristan left quickly. Ned was about to follow when the king called out again. "Not you, Ned."
Ned turned back. Robert took up his horn again, filled it with beer from a barrel in the corner, and thrust
it at Ned. "Drink," he said brusquely.
"I've no thirst-"
"Diink. Your king commands it."
Ned took the horn and drank. The beer was black and thick, so strong it stung the eyes.
Robert sat down again. "Damn you, Ned Stark. You and Jon Arryn, I loved you both. What have you
done to me? You were the one should have been king, you or Jon."
"You had the better claim, Your Grace."
"I told you to drink, not to argue. You made me king, you could at least have the courtesy to listen when
I talk, damn you. Look at me, Ned. Look at what kinging has done to me. Gods, too fat for my armor,
how did it ever come to this?"


"Robert . . ."
"Drink and stay quiet, the king is talking. I swear to you, I was never so alive as when I was winning this
throne, or so dead as now that I've won it. And Cersei . . . I have Jon Arryn to thank for her. I had no
wish to marry after Lyanna was taken from me, but Jon said the realm needed an heir. Cersei Lannister
would be a good match, he told me, she would bind Lord Tywin to me should Viserys Targaryen ever
try to win back his father's throne." The king shook his head. "I loved that old man, I swear it, but now I
think he was a bigger fool than Moon Boy. Oh, Cersei is lovely to look at, truly, but cold . . . the way she
guards her cunt, you'd think she had all the gold of Casterly Rock between her legs. Here, give me that
beer if you won't drink it." He took the horn, upended it, belched, wiped his mouth. "I am sorry for your
girl, Ned. Truly. About the wolf, I mean. My son was lying, I'd stake my soul on it. My son . . . you love
your children, don't you?"
"With all my heart," Ned said.
"Let me tell you a secret, Ned. More than once, I have dreamed of giving up the crown. Take ship for
the Free Cities with my horse and my hammer, spend my time warring and whoring, that's what I was
made for. The sellsword king, how the singers would love me. You know what stops me? The thought of
Joffrey on the throne, with Cersei standing behind him whispering in his ear. My son. How could I have
made a son like that, Ned?"
"He's only a boy," Ned said awkwardly. He had small liking for Prince Joffrey, but he could hear the
pain in Robert's voice. "Have you forgotten how wild you were at his age?"
"It would not trouble me if the boy was wild, Ned. You don't know him as I do." He sighed and shook
his head. "Ah, perhaps you are right. Jon despaired of me often enough, yet I grew into a good king."
Robert looked at Ned and scowled at his silence. "You might speak up and agree now, you know."
"Your Grace . . ." Ned began, carefully.
Robert slapped Ned on the back. "Ah, say that I'm a better king than Aerys and be done with it. You
never could lie for love nor honor, Ned Stark. I'm still young, and now that you're here with me, things
will be different. We'll make this a reign to sing of, and damn the Lannisters to seven hells. I smell bacon.
Who do you think our champion will be today? Have you seen Mace Tyrell's boy? The Knight of
Flowers, they call him. Now there's a son any man would be proud to own to. Last tourney, he dumped
the Kingslayer on his golden rump, you ought to have seen the look on Cersei's face. I laughed till my
sides hurt. Renly says he has this sister, a maid of fourteen, lovely as a dawn . . ."
They broke their fast on black bread and boiled goose eggs and fish fried up with onions and bacon, at a
trestle table by the river's edge. The king's melancholy melted away with the morning mist, and before
long Robert was eating an orange and waxing fond about a morning at the Eyrie when they had been
boys. ". . . had given Jon a barrel of oranges, remember? Only the things had gone rotten, so I flung mine
across the table and hit Dacks right in the nose. You remember, Redfort's pock-faced squire? He tossed
one back at me, and before Jon could so much as fart, there were oranges flying across the High Hall in
every direction." He laughed uproariously, and even Ned smiled, remembering.
This was the boy he had grown up with, he thought; this was the Robert Baratheon he'd known and
loved. If he could prove that the Lannisters were behind the attack on Bran, prove that they had


murdered Jon Arryn, this man would listen. Then Cersei would fall, and the Kingslayer with her, and if
Lord Tywin dared to rouse the west, Robert would smash him as he had smashed Rhaegar Targaryen on
the Trident. He could see it all so clearly.
That breakfast tasted better than anything Eddard Stark had eaten in a long time, and afterward his
smiles came easier and more often, until it was time for the tournament to resume.
Ned walked with the king to the jousting field. He had promised to watch the final tilts with Sansa; Septa
Mordane was ill today, and his daughter was determined not to miss the end of the jousting. As he saw
Robert to his place, he noted that Cersei Lannister had chosen not to appear; the place beside the king
was empty. That too gave Ned cause to hope.
He shouldered his way to where his daughter was seated and found her as the horns blew for the day's
first joust. Sansa was so engrossed she scarcely seemed to notice his arrival.
Sandor Clegane was the first rider to appear. He wore an olivegreen
cloak over his soot-grey armor. That, and his hound's-head helm, were his only concession to
ornament.
"A hundred golden dragons on the Kingslayer," Littlefinger announced loudly as Jaime Lannister entered
the lists, riding an elegant blood bay destrier. The horse wore a blanket of gilded ringmail, and Jaime
glittered from head to heel. Even his lance was fashioned from the golden wood of the Summer Isles.
"Done," Lord Renly shouted back. "The Hound has a hungry look about him this morning."
"Even hungry dogs know better than to bite the hand that feeds them," Littlefinger called dryly.
Sandor Clegane dropped his visor with an audible clang and took up his position. Ser Jaime tossed a
kiss to some woman in the commons, gently lowered his visor, and rode to the end of the lists. Both men
couched their lances.
Ned Stark would have loved nothing so well as to see them both lose, but Sansa was watching it all
moist-eyed and eager. The hastily erected gallery trembled as the horses broke into a gallop. The Hound
leaned forward as he rode, his lance rock steady, but Jaime shifted his seat deftly in the instant before
impact. Clegane's point was turned harmlessly against the golden shield with the lion blazon, while his
own hit square. Wood shattered, and the Hound reeled, fighting to keep his seat. Sansa gasped. A
ragged cheer went up from the commons.
"I wonder how I ought spend your money," Littlefinger called down to Lord Renly.
The Hound just managed to stay in his saddle. He jerked his mount around hard and rode back to the
lists for the second pass. Jaime Lannister tossed down his broken lance and snatched up a fresh one,
jesting with his squire. The Hound spurred forward at a hard gallop. Lannister rode to meet him. This
time, when Jaime shifted his seat, Sandor Clegane shifted with him. Both lances exploded, and by the
time the splinters had settled, a riderless blood bay was trotting off in search of grass while Ser Jaime
Lannister rolled in the dirt, golden and dented.
Sansa said, "I knew the Hound would win."


Littlefinger overheard. "If you know who's going to win the second match, speak up now before Lord
Renly plucks me clean," he called to her. Ned smiled.
"A pity the Imp is not here with us," Lord Renly said. "I should have won twice as much."
Jaime Lannister was back on his feet, but his ornate lion helmet had been twisted around and dented in
his fall, and now he could not get it
off. The commons were hooting and pointing, the lords and ladies were trying to stifle their chuckles, and
failing, and over it all Ned could hear King Robert laughing, louder than anyone. Finally they had to lead
the Lion of Lannister off to a blacksmith, blind and stumbling.
By then Ser Gregor Clegane was in position at the head of the lists. He was huge, the biggest man that
Eddard Stark had ever seen. Robert Baratheon and his brothers were all big men, as was the Hound,
and back at Winterfell there was a simpleminded stableboy named Hodor who dwarfed them all, but the
knight they called the Mountain That Rides would have towered over Hodor. He was well over seven
feet tall, closer to eight, with massive shoulders and arms thick as the trunks of small trees. His destrier
seemed a pony in between his armored legs, and the lance he carried looked as small as a broom handle.
Unlike his brother, Ser Gregor did not live at court. He was a solitary man who seldom left his own
lands, but for wars and tourneys. He had been with Lord Tywin when King's Landing fell, a new-made
knight of seventeen years, even then distinguished by his size and his implacable ferocity. Some said it
had been Gregor who'd dashed the skull of the infant prince Aegon Targaryen against a wall, and
whispered that afterward he had raped the mother, the Dornish princess Elia, before putting her to the
sword. These things were not said in Gregor's hearing.
Ned Stark could not recall ever speaking to the man, though Gregor had ridden with them during Balon
Greyjoy's rebellion, one knight among thousands. He watched him with disquiet. Ned seldom put much
stock in gossip, but the things said of Ser Gregor were more than ominous. He was soon to be married
for the third time, and one heard dark whisperings about the deaths of his first two wives. It was said that
his keep was a grim place where servants disappeared unaccountably and even the dogs were afraid to
enter the hall. And there had been a sister who had died young under queer circumstances, and the fire
that had disfigured his brother, and the hunting accident that had killed their father. Gregor had inherited
the keep, the gold, and the family estates. His younger brother Sandor had left the same day to take
service with the Lannisters as a sworn sword, and it was said that he had never returned, not even to
visit.
When the Knight of Flowers made his entrance, a murmur ran through the crowd, and he heard Sansa's
fervent whisper, "Oh, he's so beautifuC Ser Loras Tyrell was slender as a reed, dressed in a suit of
fabulous silver armor polished to a blinding sheen and filigreed with twining black vines and tiny blue
forget-me-nots. The commons realized
in the same instant as Ned that the blue of the flowers came from sapphires; a gasp went up from a
thousand throats. Across the boy's shoulders his cloak hung heavy. It was woven of forget-me-nots, real
ones, hundreds of fresh blooms sewn to a heavy woolen cape.


His courser was as slim as her rider, a beautiful grey mare, built for speed. Ser Gregor's huge stallion
trumpeted as he caught her scent. The boy from Highgarden did something with his legs, and his horse
pranced sideways, nimble as a dancer. Sansa clutched at his arm. "Father, don't let Ser Gregor hurt him,"
she said. Ned saw she was wearing the rose that Ser Loras had given her yesterday. Jory had told him
about that as well.
"These are tourney lances," he told his daughter. "They make them to splinter on impact, so no one is
hurt." Yet he remembered the dead boy in the cart with his cloak of crescent moons, and the words were
raw in his throat.
Ser Gregor was having trouble controlling his horse. The stallion was screaming and pawing the ground,
shaking his head. The Mountain kicked at the animal savagely with an armored boot. The horse reared
and almost threw him.
The Knight of Flowers saluted the king, rode to the far end of the list, and couched his lance, ready. Ser
Gregor brought his animal to the line, fighting with the reins. And suddenly it began. The Mountain's
stallion broke in a hard gallop, plunging forward wildly, while the mare charged as smooth as a flow of
silk. Ser Gregor wrenched his shield into position, juggled with his lance, and all the while fought to hold
his unruly mount on a straight line, and suddenly Loras Tyrell was on him, placing the point of his lance
just there, and in an eye blink the Mountain was failing. He was so huge that he took his horse down with
him in a tangle of steel and flesh.
Ned heard applause, cheers, whistles, shocked gasps, excited muttering, and over it all the rasping,
raucous laughter of the Hound. The Knight of Flowers reined up at the end of the lists. His lance was not
even broken. His sapphires winked in the sun as he raised his visor, smiling. The commons went mad for
him.
In the middle of the field, Ser Gregor Clegane disentangled himself and came boiling to his feet. He
wrenched off his helm and slammed it down onto the ground. His face was dark with fury and his hair fell
down into his eyes. "My sword," he shouted to his squire, and the boy ran it out to him. By then his
stallion was back on its feet as well.
Gregor Clegane killed the horse with a single blow of such ferocity that it half severed the animal's neck.
Cheers turned to shrieks in a heartbeat. The stallion went to its knees, screaming as it died. By then
Gregor was striding down the lists toward Ser Loras Tyrell, his bloody sword clutched in his fist. "Stop
him!" Ned shouted, but his words were lost in the roar. Everyone else was yelling as well, and Sansa was
crying.
It all happened so fast. The Knight of Flowers was shouting for his own sword as Ser Gregor knocked
his squire aside and made a grab for the reins of his horse. The mare scented blood and reared. Loras
Tyrell kept his seat, but barely. Ser Gregor swung his sword, a savage twohanded blow that took the
boy in the chest and knocked him from the saddle. The courser dashed away in panic as Ser Loras lay
stunned in the dirt. But as Gregor lifted his sword for the killing blow, a rasping voice warned, "Leave him
be, " and a steel-clad hand wrenched him away from the boy.
The Mountain pivoted in wordless fury, swinging his longsword in a killing arc with all his massive
strength behind it, but the Hound caught the blow and turned it, and for what seemed an eternity the two
brothers stood hammering at each other as a dazed Loras Tyrell was helped to safety. Thrice Ned saw


Ser Gregor aim savage blows at the hound's-head helmet, yet not once did Sandor send a cut at his
brother's unprotected face.
It was the king's voice that put an end to it . . . the king's voice and twenty swords. Jon Arryn had told
them that a commander needs a good battlefield voice, and Robert had proved the truth of that on the
Trident. He used that voice now. "STOP THIS MADNESS, " he boomed, "IN THE NAME OF
YOUR KING!"
The Hound went to one knee. Ser Gregor's blow cut air, and at last he came to his senses. He dropped
his sword and glared at Robert, surrounded by his Kingsguard and a dozen other knights and guardsmen.
Wordlessly, he turned and strode off, shoving past Barristan Selmy. "Let him go," Robert said, and as
quickly as that, it was over.
"Is the Hound the champion now?" Sansa asked Ned.
"No," he told her. "There will be one final joust, between the Hound and the Knight of Flowers."
But Sansa had the right of it after all. A few moments later Ser Loras Tyrell walked back onto the field in
a simple linen doublet and said to Sandor Clegane, "I owe you my life. The day is yours, ser."
"I am no ser," the Hound replied, but he took the victory, and the champion's purse, and, for perhaps the
first time in his life, the love of the commons. They cheered him as he left the lists to return to his pavilion.
As Ned walked with Sansa to the archery field, Littlefinger and Lord Renly and some of the others fell in
with them. "Tyrell had to
know the mare was in heat," Littlefinger was saying. "I swear the boy planned the whole thing. Gregor
has always favored huge, ill-tempered stallions with more spirit than sense." The notion seemed to amuse
him.
It did not amuse Ser Barristan Selmy. "There is small honor in tricks," the old man said stiffly.
"Small honor and twenty thousand golds." Lord Renly smiled.
That afternoon a boy named Anguy, an unheralded commoner from the Dornish Marches, won the
archery competition, outshooting Ser Balon Swann and Jalabhar Xho at a hundred paces after all the
other bowmen had been eliminated at the shorter distances. Ned sent Alyn to seek him out and offer him
a position with the Hand's guard, but the boy was flush with wine and victory and riches undreamed of,
and he refused.
The melee went on for three hours. Near forty men took part, freeriders and hedge knights and
new-made squires in search of a reputation. They fought with blunted weapons in a chaos of mud and
blood, small troops fighting together and then turning on each other as alliances formed and fractured,
until only one man was left standing. The victor was the red priest, Thoros of Myr, a madman who
shaved his head and fought with a flaming sword. He had won melees before; the fire sword frightened
the mounts of the other riders, and nothing frightened Thoros. The final tally was three broken limbs, a
shattered collarbone, a dozen smashed fingers, two horses that had to be put down, and more cuts,
sprains, and bruises than anyone cared to count. Ned was desperately pleased that Robert had not taken
part.


That night at the feast, Eddard Stark was more hopeful than he had been in a great while. Robert was in
high good humor, the Lannisters were nowhere to be seen, and even his daughters were behaving. Jory
brought Arya down to join them, and Sansa spoke to her sister pleasantly. "The tournament was
magnificent," she sighed. "You should have come. How was your dancing?"
"I'm sore all over," Arya reported happily, proudly displaying a huge purple bruise on her leg.
"You must be a terrible dancer," Sansa said doubtfully.
Later, while Sansa was off listening to a troupe of singers perform the complex round of interwoven
ballads called the "Dance of the Dragons," Ned inspected the bruise himself. "I hope Forel is not being
too hard on you," he said.
Arya stood on one leg. She was getting much better at that of late. "Syrio says that every hurt is a lesson,
and every lesson makes you better."
Ned frowned. The man Syrio Forel had come with an excellent reputation, and his flamboyant Braavosi
style was well suited to Arya's slender blade, yet still . . . a few days ago, she had been wandering
around with a swatch of black silk tied over her eyes. Syrio was teaching her to see with her ears and her
nose and her skin, she told him. Before that, he had her doing spins and back flips. "Arya, are you certain
you want to persist in this?"
She nodded. "Tomorrow we're going to catch cats."
"Cats." Ned sighed. "Perhaps it was a mistake to hire this Braavosi. If you like, I will ask Jory to take
over your lessons. Or I might have a quiet word with Ser Barristan. He was the finest sword in the Seven
Kingdoms in his youth."
"I don't want them," Arya said. "I want Syrio."
Ned ran his fingers through his hair. Any decent master-at-arms could give Arya the rudiments of
slash-and-parry without this nonsense of blindfolds, cartwheels, and hopping about on one leg, but he
knew his youngest daughter well enough to know there was no arguing with that stubborn jut of jaw. "As
you wish," he said. Surely she would grow tired of this soon. "Try to be careful."
"I will," she promised solemnly as she hopped smoothly from her right leg to her left.
Much later, after he had taken the girls back through the city and seen them both safe in bed, Sansa with
her dreams and Arya with her bruises, Ned ascended to his own chambers atop the Tower of the Hand.
The day had been warm and the room was close and stuffy. Ned went to the window and unfastened the
heavy shutters to let in the cool night air. Across the Great Yard, he noticed the flickering glow of
candlelight from Littlefinger's windows. The hour was well past midnight. Down by the river, the revels
were only now beginning to dwindle and die.
He took out the dagger and studied it. Littlefinger's blade, won by Tyrion Lannister in a tourney wager,
sent to slay Bran in his sleep. Why? Why would the dwarf want Bran dead? Why would anyone want
Bran dead?


The dagger, Bran's fall, all of it was linked somehow to the murder of Jon Arryn, he could feel it in his
gut, but the truth of Jon's death remained as clouded to him as when he had started. Lord Stannis had not
returned to King's Landing for the tourney. Lysa Arryn held her silence behind the high walls of the Eyrie.
The squire was dead, and Jory was still searching the whorehouses. What did he have but Robert's
bastard?
That the armorer's sullen apprentice was the king's son, Ned had no
doubt. The Baratheon look was stamped on his face, in his jaw, his eyes, that black hair. Renly was too
young to have fathered a boy of that age, Stannis too cold and proud in his honor. Gendry had to be
Robert's.
Yet knowing all that, what had he learned? The king had other baseborn children scattered throughout
the Seven Kingdoms. He had openly acknowledged one of his bastards, a boy of Bran's age whose
mother was highborn. The lad was being fostered by Lord Renly's castellan at Storm's End.
Ned remembered Robert's first child as well, a daughter born in the Vale when Robert was scarcely
more than a boy himself. A sweet little girl; the young lord of Storm's End had doted on her. He used to
make daily visits to play with the babe, long after he had lost interest in the mother. Ned was often
dragged along for company, whether he willed it or not. The girl would be seventeen or eighteen now, he
realized; older than Robert had been when he fathered her. A strange thought.
Cersei could not have been pleased by her lord husband's by-blows, yet in the end it mattered little
whether the king had one bastard or a hundred. Law and custom gave the baseborn few rights. Gendry,
the girl in the Vale, the boy at Storm's End, none of them could threaten Robert's trueborn children . . .
His musings were ended by a soft rap on his door. "A man to see you, my lord," Harwin called. "He will
not give his name."
"Send him in," Ned said, wondering.
The visitor was a stout man in cracked, mud-caked boots and a heavy brown robe of the coarsest
roughspun, his features hidden by a cowl, his hands drawn up into voluminous sleeves.
"Who are you?" Ned asked.
"A friend," the cowled man said in a strange, low voice. "We must speak alone, Lord Stark."
Curiosity was stronger than caution. "Harwin, leave us," he commanded. Not until they were alone
behind closed doors did his visitor draw back his cowl.
"Lord Varys?" Ned said in astonishment.
"Lord Stark," Varys said politely, seating himself. "I wonder if I might trouble you for a drink?"
Ned filled two cups with surnmerwine and handed one to Varys. "I might have passed within a foot of
you and never recognized you," he said, incredulous. He had never seen the eunuch dress in anything but
silk and velvet and the richest damasks, and this man smelled of sweat instead of lilacs.


"That was my dearest hope," Varys said. "It would not do if certain people learned that we had spoken
in private. The queen watches you closely. This wine is very choice. Thank you."
"How did you get past my other guards?" Ned asked. Porther and Cayn had been posted outside the
tower, and Alyn on the stairs.
"The Red Keep has ways known only to ghosts and spiders." Varys smiled apologetically. "I will not
keep you long, my lord. There are things you must know. You are the King's Hand, and the king is a
fool." The eunuch's cloying tones were gone; now his voice was thin and sharp as a whip. "Your friend, I
know, yet a fool nonetheless . . . and doomed, unless you save him. Today was a near thing. They had
hoped to kill him during the melee."
For a moment Ned was speechless with shock. "Who?"
Varys sipped his wine. "If I truly need to tell you that, you are a bigger fool than Robert and I am on the
wrong side."
"The Lannisters," Ned said. "The queen . . . no, I will not believe that, not even of Cersei. She asked him
not to fight!"
"She forbade him to fight, in front of his brother, his knights, and half the court. Tell me truly, do you
know any surer way to force King Robert into the melee? I ask you."
Ned had a sick feeling in his gut. The eunuch had hit upon a truth; tell Robert Baratheon he could not,
should not, or must not do a thing, and it was as good as done. "Even if he'd fought, who would have
dared to strike the king?"
Varys shrugged. "There were forty riders in the melee. The Lannisters have many friends. Amidst all that
chaos, with horses screaming and bones breaking and Thoros of Myr waving that absurd firesword of
his, who could name it murder if some chance blow felled His Grace?" He went to the flagon and refilled
his cup. "After the deed was done, the slayer would be beside himself with grief. I can almost hear him
weeping. So sad. Yet no doubt the gracious and compassionate widow would take pity, lift the poor
unfortunate to his feet, and bless him with a gentle kiss of forgiveness. Good King Joffrey would have no
choice but to pardon him." The eunuch stroked his cheek. "Or perhaps Cersei would let Ser Ilyn strike
off his head. Less risk for the Lannisters that way, though quite an unpleasant surprise for their little
friend."
Ned felt his anger rise. "You knew of this plot, and yet you did nothing."
"I command whisperers, not warriors."
"You might have come to me earlier."
"Oh, yes, I confess it. And you would have rushed straight to the king, yes? And when Robert heard of
his peril, what would he have done? I wonder."
Ned considered that. "He would have damned them all, and fought anyway, to show he did not fear


them."
Varys spread his hands. "I will make another confession, Lord Eddard. I was curious to see what you
would do. Why not come to me? you ask, and I must answer, Why, because I did not trust you, my lord.
"You did not trust me?" Ned was frankly astonished.
"The Red Keep shelters two sorts of people, Lord Eddard," Varys said. "Those who are loyal to the
realm, and those who are loyal only to themselves. Until this morning, I could not say which you might be
. . . so I waited to see . . . and now I know, for a certainty." He smiled a plump tight little smile, and for a
moment his private face and public mask were one. "I begin to comprehend why the queen fears you so
much. Oh, yes I do."
"You are the one she ought to fear," Ned said.
"No. I am what I am. The king makes use of me, but it shames him. A most puissant warrior is our
Robert, and such a manly man has little love for sneaks and spies and eunuchs. If a day should come
when Cersei whispers, 'Kill that man,' Ilyn Payne will snick my head off in a twinkling, and who will
mourn poor Varys then? North or south, they sing no songs for spiders." He reached out and touched
Ned with a soft hand. "But you, Lord Stark . . . I think . . . no, I know . . . he would not kill you, not
even for his queen, and there may lie our salvation."
It was all too much. For a moment Eddard Stark wanted nothing so much as to return to Winterfell, to
the clean simplicity of the north, where the enemies were winter and the wildlings beyond the Wall.
"Surely Robert has other loyal friends," he protested. "His brothers, his-"
,,-wife?" Varys finished, with a smile that cut. "His brothers hate the Lannisters, true enough, but hating
the queen and loving the king are not quite the same thing, are they? Ser Barristan loves his honor, Grand
Maester Pycelle loves his office, and Littlefinger loves Littlefinger."
"The Kingsguard-"
"A paper shield," the eunuch said. "Try not to look so shocked, Lord Stark. Jaime Lannister is himself a
Sworn Brother of the White Swords, and we all know what his oath is worth. The days when men like
Ryam Redwyne and Prince Aemon the Dragonknight wore the
white cloak are gone to dust and song. Of these seven, only Ser Barristan Selmy is made of the true
steel, and Selmy is old. Ser Boros and Ser Meryn are the queen's creatures to the bone, and I have deep
suspicions of the others. No, my lord, when the swords come out in earnest, you will be the only true
friend Robert Baratheon will have."
"Robert must be told," Ned said. "If what you say is true, if even a part of it is true, the king must hear it
for himself."
"And what proof shall we lay before him? My words against theirs? My little birds against the queen and
the Kingslayer, against his brothers and his council, against the Wardens of East and West, against all the
might of Casterly Rock? Pray, send for Ser Ilyn directly, it will save us all some time. I know where that
road ends."


"Yet if what you say is true, they will only bide their time and make another attempt."
"Indeed they will," said Varys, "and sooner rather than later, I do fear. You are making them most
anxious, Lord Eddard. But my little birds will be listening, and together we may be able to forestall them,
you and U' He rose and pulled up his cowl so his face was hidden once more. "Thank you for the wine.
We will speak again. When you see me next at council, be certain to treat me with your accustomed
contempt. You should not find it difficult."
He was at the door when Ned called, "Varys. " The eunuch turned back. "How did Jon Arryn die?"
"I wondered when you would get around to that."
"Tell me."
"The tears of Lys, they call it. A rare and costly thing, clear and sweet as water, and it leaves no trace. I
begged Lord Arryn to use a taster, in this very room I begged him, but he would not hear of it. Only one
who was less than a man would even think of such a thing, he told me."
Ned had to know the rest. "Who gave him the poison?"
"Some dear sweet friend who often shared meat and mead with him, no doubt. Oh, but which one?
There were many such. Lord Arryn was a kindly, trusting man." The eunuch sighed. "There was one boy.
All he was, he owed Jon Arryn, but when the widow fled to the Eyrie with her household, he stayed in
King's Landing and prospered. It always gladdens my heart to see the young rise in the world." The whip
was in his voice again, every word a stroke. "He must have cut a gallant figure in the tourney, him in his
bright new armor, with those crescent moons on his cloak. A pity he died so untimely, before you could
talk to him . . ."
Ned felt half-poisoned himself. "The squire," he said. "Ser Hugh." Wheels within wheels within wheels.
Ned's head was pounding. ""y? Why now? Jon Arryn had been Hand for fourteen years. What was he
doing that they had to kill him?"
"Asking questions," Varys said, slipping out the door.
TYRION
As he stood in the predawn chill watching Chiggen butcher his horse, Tyrion Lannister chalked up one
more debt owed the Starks. Steam rose from inside the carcass when the squat sellsword opened the
belly with his skinning knife. His hands moved deftly, with never a wasted cut; the work had to be done
quickly, before the stink of blood brought shadowcats down from the heights.
"None of us will go hungry tonight," Bronn said. He was near a shadow himself; bone thin and bone
hard, with black eyes and black hair and a stubble of beard.
"Some of us may," Tyrion told him. "I am not fond of eating horse. Particularly my horse."
"Meat is meat," Bronn said with a shrug. "The Dothraki like horse more than beef or pork."


"Do you take me for a Dothraki?" Tyrion asked sourly. The Dothraki ate horse, in truth; they also left
deformed children out for the feral dogs who ran behind their khalasars. Dothraki customs had scant
appeal for him.
Chiggen sliced a thin strip of bloody meat off the carcass and held it up for inspection. "Want a taste,
dwarf?"
"My brother Jaime gave me that mare for my twenty-third name day," Tyrion said in a flat voice.
"Thank him for us, then. If you ever see him again." Chiggen grinned, showing yellow teeth, and
swallowed the raw meat in two bites. "Tastes well bred."
"Better if you fry it up with onions," Bronn put in.
Wordlessly, Tyrion limped away. The cold had settled deep in his bones, and his legs were so sore he
could scarcely walk. Perhaps his dead mare was the lucky one. He had hours more riding ahead of him,
followed by a few mouthfuls of food and a short, cold sleep on hard ground, and then another night of the
same, and another, and another, and the gods only knew how it would end. "Damn her," he muttered as
he struggled up the road to rejoin his captors, remembering, "damn her and all the Starks."
The memory was still bitter. One moment he'd been ordering supper, and an eye blink later he was
facing a room of armed men, with Jyck reaching for a sword and the fat innkeep shrieking, "No swords,
not here, please, m'lords."
Tyrion wrenched down Jyck's arm hurriedly, before he got them both hacked to pieces. "Where are
your courtesies, Jyck? Our good hostess said no swords. Do as she asks." He forced a smile that must
have looked as queasy as it felt. "You're making a sad mistake, Lady Stark. I had no part in any attack
on your son. On my honor-"
"Lannister honor," was all she said. She held up her hands for all the room to see. "His dagger left these
scars. The blade he sent to open my son's throat."
Tyrion felt the anger all around him, thick and smoky, fed by the deep cuts in the Stark woman's hands.
"Kill him," hissed some drunken slattern from the back, and other voices took up the call, faster than he
would have believed. Strangers all, friendly enough only a moment ago, and yet now they cried for his
blood like hounds on a trail.
Tyrion spoke up loudly, trying to keep the quaver from his voice. "If Lady Stark believes I have some
crime to answer for, I will go with her and answer for it."
It was the only possible course. Trying to cut their way out of this was a sure invitation to an early grave.
A good dozen swords had responded to the Stark woman's plea for help: the Harrenhal man, the three
Brackens, a pair of unsavory sellswords who looked as though they'd kill him as soon as spit, and some
fool field hands who doubtless had no idea what they were doing. Against that, what did Tyrion have? A
dagger at his belt, and two men. Jyck swung a fair enough sword, but Morrec scarcely counted; he was
part groom, part cook, part body servant, and no soldier. As for Yoren, whatever his feelings might have


been, the black brothers were sworn to take no part in the quarrels of the realm. Yoren would do
nothing.
And indeed, the black brother stepped aside silently when the old knight by Catelyn Stark's side said,
"Take their weapons," and the sellsword Bronn stepped forward to pull the sword from Jyck's fingers
and relieve them all of their daggers. "Good," the old man said as the tension in the common room ebbed
palpably, "excellent." Tyrion recognized the gruff voice; Winterfell's master-at-arms, shorn of his
whiskers.
Scarlet-tinged spittle flew from the fat innkeep's mouth as she begged of Catelyn Stark, "Don't kill him
here!"
"Don't kill him anywhere," Tyrion urged.
"Take him somewheres else, no blood here, m1ady, I wants no high lordlin's quarrels."
"We are taking him back to Winterfell," she said, and Tyrion thought, Well, perhaps . . . By then he'd
had a moment to glance over the room and get a better idea of the situation. He was not altogether
displeased by what he saw. Oh, the Stark woman had been clever, no doubt of it. Force them to make a
public affirmation of the oaths sworn her father by the lords they served, and then call on them for succor,
and her a woman, yes, that was sweet. Yet her success was not as complete as she might have liked.
There were close to fifty in the common room by his rough count. Catelyn Stark's plea had roused a bare
dozen; the others looked confused, or frightened, or sullen. Only two of the Freys had stirred, Tyrion
noted, and they'd sat back down quick enough when their captain failed to move. He might have smiled if
he'd dared.
"Winterfell it is, then," he said instead. That was a long ride, as he could well attest, having just ridden it
the other way. So many things could happen along the way. "My father will wonder what has become of
me," he added, catching the eye of the swordsman who'd offered to yield up his room. "He'll pay a
handsome reward to any man who brings him word of what happened here today." Lord Tywin would
do no such thing, of course, but Tyrion would make up for it if he won free.
Ser Rodrik glanced at his lady, his look worried, as well it might be. "His men come with him," the old
knight announced. "And we'll thank the rest of you to stay quiet about what you've seen here."
It was all Tyrion could do not to laugh. Quiet? The old fool. Unless he took the whole inn, the word
would begin to spread the instant they were gone. The freerider with the gold coin in his pocket would fly
to Casterly Rock like an arrow. If not him, then someone else. Yoren
would carry the story south. That fool singer might make a lay of it. The Freys would report back to
their lord, and the gods only knew what he might do. Lord Walder Frey might be sworn to Riverrun, but
he was a cautious man who had lived a long time by making certain he was always on the winning side.
At the very least he would send his birds winging south to King's Landing, and he might well dare more
than that.
Catelyn Stark wasted no time. "We must ride at once. We'll want fresh mounts, and provisions for the
road. You men, know that you have the eternal gratitude of House Stark. If any of you choose to help us
guard our captives and get them safe to Winterfell, I promise you shall be well rewarded." That was all it


took; the fools came rushing forward. Tyrion studied their faces; they would indeed be well rewarded, he
vowed to himself, but perhaps not quite as they imagined.
Yet even as they were bundling him outside, saddling the horses in the rain, and tying his hands with a
length of coarse rope, Tyrion Lannister was not truly afraid. They would never get him to Winterfell, he
would have given odds on that. Riders would be after them within the day, birds would take wing, and
surely one of the river lords would want to curry favor with his father enough to take a hand. Tyrion was
congratulating himself on his subtlety when someone pulled a hood down over his eyes and lifted him up
onto a saddle.
They set out through the rain at a hard gallop, and before long Tyrion's thighs were cramped and aching
and his butt throbbed with pain. Even when they were safely away from the inn, and Catelyn Stark
slowed them to a trot, it was a miserable pounding journey over rough ground, made worse by his
blindness. Every twist and turn put him in danger of falling off his horse. The hood muffled sound, so he
could not make out what was being said around him, and the rain soaked through the cloth and made it
cling to his face, until even breathing was a struggle. The rope chafed his wrists raw and seemed to grow
tighter as the night wore on. I was about to settle down to a warm fire and a roast fowl, and that
wretched singer had to open his mouth, he thought mournfully. The wretched singer had come along with
them. "There is a great song to be made from this, and I'm the one to make it," he told Catelyn Stark
when he announced his intention of riding with them to see how the "splendid adventure" turned out.
Tyrion wondered whether the boy would think the adventure quite so splendid once the Lannister riders
caught up with them.
The rain had finally stopped and dawn light was seeping through the wet cloth over his eyes when
Catelyn Stark gave the command to dismount. Rough hands pulled him down from his horse, untied his
wrists, and yanked the hood off his head. When he saw the narrow stony road, the foothills rising high
and wild all around them, and the jagged snowcapped peaks on the distant horizon, all the hope went out
of him in a rush. "This is the high road," he gasped, looking at Lady Stark with accusation. "The eastem
road. You said we were riding for Winterfell!"
Catelyn Stark favored him with the faintest of smiles. "Often and loudly," she agreed. "No doubt your
friends will ride that way when they come after us. I wish them good speed."
Even now, long days later, the memory filled him with a bitter rage. All his life Tyrion had prided himself
on his cunning, the only gift the gods had seen fit to give him, and yet this seven-times-damned shewolf
Catelyn Stark had outwitted him at every turn. The knowledge was more galling than the bare fact of his
abduction.
They stopped only as long as it took to feed and water the horses, and then they were off again. This
time Tyrion was spared the hood. After the second night they no longer bound his hands, and once they
had gained the heights they scarcely bothered to guard him at all. It seemed they did not fear his escape.
And why should they? Up here the land was harsh and wild, and the high road little more than a stony
track. If he did run, how far could he hope to go, alone and without provisions? The shadowcats would
make a morsel of him, and the clans that dwelt in the mountain fastnesses were brigands and murderers
who bowed to no law but the sword.
Yet still the Stark woman drove them forward relentlessly. He knew where they were bound. He had
known it since the moment they pulled off his hood. These mountains were the domain of House Arryn,


and the late Hand's widow was a Tully, Catelyn Stark's sister . . . and no friend to the Lannisters. Tyrion
had known the Lady Lysa slightly during her years at King's Landing, and did not look forward to
renewing the acquaintance.
His captors were clustered around a stream a short ways down the high road. The horses had drunk
their fill of the icy cold water, and were grazing on clumps of brown grass that grew from clefts in the
rock. Jyck and Morrec huddled close, sullen and miserable. Mohor stood over them, leaning on his
spear and wearing a rounded iron cap that made him look as if he had a bowl on his head. Nearby,
Marillion the singer sat oiling his woodharp, complaining of what the damp was doing to his strings.
"We must have some rest, my lady," the hedge knight Ser Willis Wode was saying to Catelyn Stark as
Tyrion approached. He was Lady
Whent's man, stiff-necked and stolid, and the first to rise to aid Catelyn Stark back at the inn.
"Ser Willis speaks truly, my lady," Ser Rodrik said. "This is the third horse we have lost-"
"We will lose more than horses if we're overtaken by the Lannisters," she reminded them. Her face was
windburnt and gaunt, but it had lost none of its determination.
"Small chance of that here," Tyrion put in.
"The lady did not ask your views, dwarf," snapped Kurleket, a great fat oaf with short-cropped hair and
a pig's face. He was one of the Brackens, a man-at-arms in the service of Lord Jonos. Tyrion had made
a special effort to learn all their names, so he might thank them later for their tender treatment of him. A
Lannister always paid his debts. Kurleket would learn that someday, as would his friends Lharys and
Mohor, and the good Ser Willis, and the sellswords Bronn and Chiggen. He planned an especially sharp
lesson for Marillion, him of the woodharp and the sweet tenor voice, who was struggling so manfully to
rhyme imp with gimp and limp so he could make a song of this outrage.
"Let him speak," Lady Stark commanded.
Tyrion Lannister seated himself on a rock. "By now our pursuit is likely racing across the Neck, chasing
your lie up the kingsroad . . . assuming there is a pursuit, which is by no means certain. Oh, no doubt the
word has reached my father . . . but my father does not love me overmuch, and I am not at all sure that
he will bother to bestir himself." It was only half a lie; Lord Tywin Lannister cared not a fig for his
deformed son, but he tolerated no slights on the honor of his House. "This is a cruel land, Lady Stark.
You'll find no succor until you reach the Vale, and each mount you lose burdens the others all the more.
Worse, you risk losing me. I am small, and not strong, and if I die, then what's the point?" That was no lie
at all; Tyrion did not know how much longer he could endure this pace.
"It might be said that your death is the point, Lannister," Catelyn Stark replied.
"I think not," Tyrion said. "If you wanted me dead, you had only to say the word, and one of these
staunch friends of yours would gladly have given me a red smile." He looked at Kurleket, but the man
was too dim to taste the mockery.
"The Starks do not murder men in their beds."


"Nor do I," he said.-I tell you again, I had no part in the attempt to kill your son."
"The assassin was armed with your dagger."
Tyrion felt the heat rise in him. "It was not my dagger," he insisted. "How many times must I swear to
that? Lady Stark, whatever you may believe of me, I am not a stupid man. Only a fool would arm a
common footpad with his own blade."
Just for a moment, he thought he saw a flicker of doubt in her eyes, but what she said was, "Why would
Petyr lie to me?"
"Why does a bear shit in the woods?" he demanded. "Because it is his nature. Lying comes as easily as
breathing to a man like Littlefinger. You ought to know that, you of all people."
She took a step toward him, her face tight. "And what does that mean, Lannister?"
Tyrion cocked his head. "Why, every man at court has heard him tell how he took your maidenhead, my
lady."
"That is a lie!" Catelyn Stark said.
"Oh, wicked little imp," Marillion said, shocked.
Kurleket drew his dirk, a vicious piece of black iron. "At your word, m'lady, I'll toss his lying tongue at
your feet." His pig eyes were wet with excitement at the prospect.
Catelyn Stark stared at Tyrion with a coldness on her face such as he had never seen. "Petyr Baelish
loved me once. He was only a boy. His passion was a tragedy for all of us, but it was real, and pure, and
nothing to be made mock of. He wanted my hand. That is the truth of the matter. You are truly an evil
man, Lannister."
"And you are truly a fool, Lady Stark. Littlefinger has never loved anyone but Littlefinger, and I promise
you that it is not your hand that he boasts of, it's those ripe breasts of yours, and that sweet mouth, and
the heat between your legs."
Kurleket grabbed a handful of hair and yanked his head back in a hard jerk, baring his throat. Tyrion felt
the cold kiss of steel beneath his chin. "Shall I bleed him, my lady?"
"Kill me and the truth dies with me," Tyrion gasped.
"Let him talk," Catelyn Stark commanded.
Kurleket let go of Tyrion's hair, reluctantly.
Tyrion took a deep breath. "How did Littlefinger tell you I came by this dagger of his? Answer me that."
"You won it from him in a wager, during the tourney on Prince Joffrey's name day."
"When my brother Jaime was unhorsed by the Knight of Flowers, that was his story, no?"


"It was," she admitted. A line creased her brow.
"Riders!"
The shriek came from the wind-carved ridge above them. Ser
Rodrik had sent Lharys scrambling up the rock face to watch the road while they took their rest.
For a long second, no one moved. Catelyn Stark was the first to react. "Ser Rodrik, Ser Willis, to
horse," she shouted. "Get the other mounts behind us. Mohor, guard the prisoners-"
"Arm us!" Tyrion sprang to his feet and seized her by the arm. "You will need every sword."
She knew he was right, Tyrion could see it. The mountain clans cared nothing for the enmities of the
great houses; they would slaughter Stark and Lannister with equal fervor, as they slaughtered each other.
They might spare Catelyn herself; she was still young enough to bear sons. Still, she hesitated.
"I hear them!" Ser Rodrik called out. Tyrion turned his head to listen, and there it was: hoofbeats, a
dozen horses or more, coming nearer. Suddenly everyone was moving, reaching for weapons, running to
their mounts.
Pebbles rained down around them as Lharys came springing and sliding down the ridge. He landed
breathless in front of Catelyn Stark, an ungainly-looking man with wild tufts of rust-colored hair sticking
out from under a conical steel cap. "Twenty men, maybe twenty-five," he said, breathless. "Milk Snakes
or Moon Brothers, by my guess. They must have eyes out, m1ady . . . hidden watchers . . . they know
we're here."
Ser Rodrik Cassel was already ahorse, a longsword in hand. Mohor crouched behind a boulder, both
hands on his iron-tipped spear, a dagger between his teeth. "You, singer," Ser Willis Wode called out.
"Help me with this breastplate." Marillion sat frozen, clutching his woodharp, his face as pale as milk, but
Tyrion's man Morrec bounded quickly to his feet and moved to help the knight with his armor.
Tyrion kept his grip on Catelyn Stark. "You have no choice," he told her. "Three of us, and a fourth man
wasted guarding us . . . four men can be the difference between life and death up here."
"Give me your word that you will put down your swords again after the fight is done."
"My word?" The hoofbeats were louder now. Tyrion grinned crookedly. "Oh, that you have, my lady . .
. on my honor as a Lannister."
For a moment he thought she would spit at him, but instead she snapped, "Arm them," and as quick as
that she was pulling away. Ser Rodrik tossed Jyck his sword and scabbard, and wheeled to meet the
foe. Morrec helped himself to a bow and quiver, and went to one knee beside the road. He was a better
archer than swordsman. And Bronn rode up to offer Tyrion a double-bladed axe.
"I have never fought with an axe." The weapon felt awkward and unfamiliar in his hands. It had a short


haft, a heavy head, a nasty spike on top.
"Pretend you're splitting logs," Bronn said, drawing his longsword from the scabbard across his back.
He spat, and trotted off to form up beside Chiggen and Ser Rodrik. Ser Willis mounted up to join them,
fumbling with his helmet, a metal pot with a thin slit for his eyes and a long black silk plume.
"Logs don't bleed," Tyrion said to no one in particular. He felt naked without armor. He looked around
for a rock and ran over to where Marillion was hiding. "Move over."
"Go away!" the boy screamed back at him. "I'm a singer, I want no part of this fight!"
"What, lost your taste for adventure?" Tyrion kicked at the youth until he slid over, and not a moment
too soon. A heartbeat later, the riders were on them.
There were no heralds, no banners, no horns nor drums, only the twang of bowstrings as Morrec and
Lharys let fly, and suddenly the clansmen came thundering out of the dawn, lean dark men in boiled
leather and mismatched armor, faces hidden behind barred halffielms. In gloved hands were clutched all
manner of weapons: longswords and lances and sharpened scythes, spiked clubs and daggers and heavy
iron mauls. At their head rode a big man in a striped shadowskin cloak, armed with a two-handed
greatsword.
Ser Rodrik shouted "Winterfell!" and rode to meet him, with Bronn and Chiggen beside him, screaming
some wordless battle cry. Ser Willis Wode followed, swinging a spiked morningstar around his head.
"Harrenhal! Harrenhal!" he sang. Tyrion felt a sudden urge to leap up, brandish his axe, and boom out,
"Casterly Rock!" but the insanity passed quickly and he crouched down lower.
He heard the screams of frightened horses and the crash of metal on metal. Chiggen's sword raked
across the naked face of a mailed rider, and Bronn plunged through the clansmen like a whirlwind, cutting
down foes right and left. Ser Rodrik hammered at the big man in the shadowskin cloak, their horses
dancing round each other as they traded blow for blow. Jyck vaulted onto a horse and galloped
bareback into the fray. Tyrion saw an arrow sprout from the throat of the man in the shadowskin cloak.
When he opened his mouth to scream, only blood came out. By the time he fell, Ser Rodrik was fighting
someone else.
Suddenly Marillion shrieked, covering his head with his woodharp as a horse leapt over their rock.
Tyrion scrambled to his feet as the
rider turned to come back at them, hefting a spiked maul. Tyrion swung his axe with both hands. The
blade caught the charging horse in the throat with a meaty thunk, angling upward, and Tyrion almost lost
his grip as the animal screamed and collapsed. He managed to wrench the axe free and lurch clumsily out
of the way. Marillion was less fortunate. Horse and rider crashed to the ground in a tangle on top of the
singer. Tyrion danced back in while the brigand's leg was still pinned beneath his fallen mount, and buried
the axe in the man's neck, just above the shoulder blades.
As he struggled to yank the blade loose, he heard Marillion moaning under the bodies. "Someone help
me," the singer gasped. "Gods have mercy, I'm bleeding."
"I believe that's horse blood," Tyrion said. The singer's hand came crawling out from beneath the dead
animal, scrabbling in the dirt like a spider with five legs. Tyrion put his heel on the grasping fingers and felt


a satisfying crunch. "Close your eyes and pretend you're dead," he advised the singer before he hefted
the axe and turned away.
After that, things ran together. The dawn was full of shouts and screams and heavy with the scent of
blood, and the world had turned to chaos. Arrows hissed past his ear and clattered off the rocks. He
saw Bronn unhorsed, fighting with a sword in each hand. Tyrion kept on the fringes of the fight, sliding
from rock to rock and darting out of the shadows to hew at the legs of passing horses. He found a
wounded clansman and left him dead, helping himself to the man's halfhelm. It fit too snugly, but Tyrion
was glad of any protection at all. Jyck was cut down from behind while he sliced at a man in front of him,
and later Tyrion stumbled over Kurleket's body. The pig face had been smashed in with a mace, but
Tyrion recognized the dirk as he plucked it from the man's dead fingers. He was sliding it through his belt
when he heard a woman's scream.
Catelyn Stark was trapped against the stone face of the mountain with three men around her, one still
mounted and the other two on foot. She had a dagger clutched awkwardly in her maimed hands, but her
back was to the rock now and they had penned her on three sides. Let them have the bitch, Tyrion
thought, and welcome to her, yet somehow he was moving. He caught the first man in the back of the
knee before they even knew he was there, and the heavy axehead split flesh and bone like rotten wood.
Logs that bleed, Tyrion thought inanely as the second man came for him. Tyrion ducked under his sword,
lashed out with the axe, the man reeled backward . . . and Catelyn Stark stepped up behind him and
opened his throat. The horseman remembered an urgent engagement elsewhere and galloped off
suddenly.
Tyrion looked around. The enemy were all vanquished or vanished. Somehow the fighting had ended
when he wasn't looking. Dying horses and wounded men lay all around, screaming or moaning. To his
vast astonishment, he was not one of them. He opened his fingers and let the axe thunk to the ground. His
hands were sticky with blood. He could have sworn they had been fighting for half a day, but the sun
seemed scarcely to have moved at all.
"Your first battle?" Bronn asked later as he bent over Jyck's body, pulling off his boots. They were good
boots, as befit one of Lord Tywin's men; heavy leather, oiled and supple, much finer than what Bronn
was wearing.
Tyrion nodded. "My father will be so proud," he said. His legs were cramping so badly he could
scarcely stand. Odd, he had never once noticed the pain during the battle.
"You need a woman now," Bronn said with a glint in his black eyes. He shoved the boots into his
saddlebag. "Nothing like a woman after a man's been blooded, take my word."
Chiggen stopped looting the corpses of the brigands long enough to snort and lick his lips.
Tyrion glanced over to where Lady Stark was dressing Ser Rodrik's wounds. "I'm willing if she is," he
said. The freeriders broke into laughter, and Tyrion grinned and thought, There's a start.
Afterward he knelt by the stream and washed the blood off his face in water cold as ice. As he limped
back to the others, he glanced again at the slain. The dead clansmen were thin, ragged men, their horses
scrawny and undersized, with every rib showing. What weapons Bronn and Chiggen had left them were
none too impressive. Mauls, clubs, a scythe . . . He remembered the big man in the shadowskin cloak
who had dueled Ser Rodrik with a two-handed greatsword, but when he found his corpse sprawled on


the stony ground, the man was not so big after all, the cloak was gone, and Tyrion saw that the blade
was badly notched, its cheap steel spotted with rust. Small wonder the clansmen had left nine bodies on
the ground.
They had only three dead; two of Lord Bracken's men-at-arms, Kurleket and Mohor, and his own man
Jyck, who had made such a bold show with his bareback charge. A fool to the end, Tyrion thought.
"Lady Stark, I urge you to press on, with all haste," Ser Willis Wode said, his eyes scanning the
ridgetops warily through the slit in his helm. "We drove them off for the moment, but they will not have
gone far."
"We must bury our dead, Ser Willis," she said. "These were brave men. I will not leave them to the
crows and shadowcats."
"This soil is too stony for digging," Ser Willis said.
"Then we shall gather stones for cairns."
"Gather all the stones you want," Bronn told her, "but do it without me or Chiggen. I've better things to
do than pile rocks on dead men . . . breathing, for one." He looked over the rest of the survivors. "Any of
you who hope to be alive come nightfall, ride with us."
"My lady, I fear he speaks the truth," Ser Rodrik said wearily. The old knight had been wounded in the
fight, a deep gash in his left arm and a spear thrust that grazed his neck, and he sounded his age. "If we
linger here, they will be on us again for a certainty, and we may not live through a second attack."
Tyrion could see the anger in Catelyn's face, but she had no choice. "May the gods forgive us, then. We
will ride at once."
There was no shortage of horses now. Tyrion moved his saddle to Jyck's spotted gelding, who looked
strong enough to last another three or four days at least. He was about to mount when Lharys stepped up
and said, "I'll take that dirk now, dwarf."
"Let him keep it." Catelyn Stark looked down from her horse. "And see that he has his axe back as well.
We may have need of it if we are attacked again."
"You have my thanks, lady," Tyrion said, mounting up.
"Save them," she said curtly. "I trust you no more than I did before." She was gone before he could
frame a reply.
Tyrion adjusted his stolen helm and took the axe from Bronn. He remembered how he had begun the
journey, with his wrists bound and a hood pulled down over his head, and decided that this was a definite
improvement. Lady Stark could keep her trust; so long as he could keep the axe, he would count himself
ahead in the game.
Ser Willis Wode led them out. Bronn took the rear, with Lady Stark safely in the middle, Ser Rodrik a
shadow beside her. Marillion kept throwing sullen looks back at Tyrion as they rode. The singer had
broken several ribs, his woodharp, and all four fingers on his playing hand, yet the day had not been an


utter loss to him; somewhere he had acquired a magnificent shadowskin cloak, thick black fur slashed by
stripes of white. He huddled beneath its folds silently, and for once had nothing to say.
They heard the deep growls of shadowcats behind them before they had gone half a mile, and later the
wild snarling of the beasts fighting over the corpses they had left behind. Marillion grew visibly pale.
Tyrion trotted up beside him. "Craven, " he said, "rhymes nicely with raven." He kicked his horse and
moved past the singer, up to Ser Rodrik and Catelyn Stark.
She looked at him, lips pressed tightly together.
"As I was saying before we were so rudely interrupted," Tyrion began, "there is a serious flaw in
Littlefinger's fable. Whatever you may believe of me, Lady Stark, I promise you this-1 never bet against
my family."
ARYA
The one-eared black tom arched his back and hissed at her.
Arya padded down the alley, balanced lightly on the balls of her bare feet, listening to the flutter of her
heart, breathing slow deep breaths. Quiet as a shadow, she told herself, light as a feather. The tomcat
watched her come, his eyes wary.
Catching cats was hard. Her hands were covered with half-healed scratches, and both knees were
scabbed over where she had scraped them raw in tumbles. At first even the cook's huge fat kitchen cat
had been able to elude her, but Syrio had kept her at it day and night. When she'd run to him with her
hands bleeding, he had said, "So slow? Be quicker, girl. Your enemies will give you more than
scratches." He had dabbed her wounds with Myrish fire, which burned so bad she had had to bite her lip
to keep from screaming. Then he sent her out after more cats.
The Red Keep was full of cats: lazy old cats dozing in the sun, coldeyed mousers twitching their tails,
quick little kittens with claws like needles, ladies' cats all combed and trusting, ragged shadows prowling
the midden heaps. One by one Arya had chased them down and snatched them up and brought them
proudly to Syrio Forel . . . all but this one, this one-eared black devil of a tomcat. "That's the real king of
this castle right there," one of the gold cloaks had told her. "Older than sin and twice as mean. One time,
the king was feasting the
queen's father, and that black bastard hopped up on the table and snatched a roast quail right out of
Lord Tywin's fingers. Robert laughed so hard he like to burst. You stay away from that one, child."
He had run her halfway across the castle; twice around the Tower of the Hand, across the inner bailey,
through the stables, down the serpentine steps, past the small kitchen and the pig yard and the barracks
of the gold cloaks, along the base of the river wall and up more steps and back and forth over Traitor's
Walk, and then down again and through a gate and around a well and in and out of strange buildings until
Arya didn't know where she was.


Now at last she had him. High walls pressed close on either side, and ahead was a blank windowless
mass of stone. Quiet as a shadow, she repeated, sliding forward, light as a feather.
When she was three steps away from him, the tomcat bolted. Left, then right, he went; and right, then
left, went Arya, cutting off his escape. He hissed again and tried to dart between her legs. Quick as a
snake, she thought. Her hands closed around him. She hugged him to her chest, whirling and laughing
aloud as his claws raked at the front of her leather jerkin. Ever so fast, she kissed him right between the
eyes, and jerked her head back an instant before his claws would have found her face. The tomcat
yowled and spit.
"What's he doing to that cat?"
Startled, Arya dropped the cat and whirled toward the voice. The torn bounded off in the blink of an
eye. At the end of the alley stood a girl with a mass of golden curls, dressed as pretty as a doll in blue
satin. Beside her was a plump little blond boy with a prancing stag sewn in pearls across the front of his
doublet and a miniature sword at his belt. Princess Myrcella and Prince Tommen, Arya thought. A septa
as large as a draft horse hovered over them, and behind her two big men in crimson cloaks, Lannister
house guards.
"What were you doing to that cat, boy?" Myrcella asked again, sternly. To her brother she said, "He's a
ragged boy, isn't he? Look at him." She giggled.
"A ragged dirty smelly boy," Tommen agreed.
They don't know me, Arya realized. They don't even know I'm a girl. Small wonder; she was barefoot
and dirty, her hair tangled from the long run through the castle, clad in a jerkin ripped by cat claws and
brown roughspun pants hacked off above her scabby knees. You don't wear skirts and silks when you're
catching cats. Quickly she lowered her head and dropped to one knee. Maybe they wouldn't recognize
her. If they did, she would never hear the end of it. Septa Mordane
would be mortified, and Sansa would never speak to her again from the shame.
The old fat septa moved forward. "Boy, how did you come here? You have no business in this part of
the castle."
"You can't keep this sort out," one of the red cloaks said. "Like trying to keep out rats."
"Who do you belong to, boy?" the septa demanded. "Answer me. What's wrong with you, are you
mute?"
Arya's voice caught in her throat. If she answered, Tommen and Myrcella would know her for certain.
"Godwyn, bring him here," the septa said. The taller of the guardsmen started down the alley.
Panic gripped her throat like a giant's hand. Arya could not have spoken if her life had hung on it. Calm
as still water, she mouthed silently.
As Godwyn reached for her, Arya moved. Quick as a snake. She leaned to her left, letting his fingers
brush her arm, spinning around him, Smooth as summer silk. By the time he got himself turned, she was


sprinting down the alley. Swift as a deer. The septa was screeching at her. Arya slid between legs as
thick and white as marble columns, bounded to her feet, bowled into Prince Tommen and hopped over
him when he sat down hard and said "Oof, " spun away from the second guard, and then she was past
them all, running full out.
She heard shouts, then pounding footsteps, closing behind her. She dropped and rolled. The red cloak
went careening past her, stumbling. Arya sprang back to her feet. She saw a window above her, high and
narrow, scarcely more than an arrow slit. Arya leapt, caught the sill, pulled herself up. She held her
breath as she wriggled through. Slippery as an eel. Dropping to the floor in front of a startled
scrubwoman, she hopped up, brushed the rushes off her clothes, and was off again, out the door and
along a long hall, down a stair, across a hidden courtyard, around a corner and over a wall and through a
low narrow window into a pitch-dark cellar. The sounds grew more and more distant behind her.
Arya was out of breath and quite thoroughly lost. She was in for it now if they had recognized her, but
she didn't think they had. She'd moved too fast. Swift as a deer.
She hunkered down in the dark against a damp stone wall and listened for the pursuit, but the only sound
was the beating of her own heart and a distant drip of water. Quiet as a shadow, she told herself. She
wondered where she was. When they had first come to King's Landing, she used to have bad dreams
about getting lost in the castle.
Father said the Red Keep was smaller than Winterfell, but in her dreams it had been immense, an
endless stone maze with walls that seemed to shift and change behind her. She would find herself
wandering down gloomy halls past faded tapestries, descending endless circular stairs, darting through
courtyards or over bridges, her shouts echoing unanswered. In some of the rooms the red stone walls
would seem to drip blood, and nowhere could she find a window. Sometimes she would hear her father's
voice, but always from a long way off, and no matter how hard she ran after it, it would grow fainter and
fainter, until it faded to nothing and Arya was alone in the dark.
It was very dark right now, she realized. She hugged her bare knees tight against her chest and shivered.
She would wait quietly and count to ten thousand. By then it would be safe for her to come creeping
back out and find her way home.
By the time she had reached eighty-seven, the room had begun to lighten as her eyes adjusted to the
blackness. Slowly the shapes around her took on form. Huge empty eyes stared at her hungrily through
the gloom, and dimly she saw the jagged shadows of long teeth. She had lost the count. She closed her
eyes and bit her lip and sent the fear away. When she looked again, the monsters would be gone. Would
never have been. She pretended that Syrio was beside her in the dark, whispering in her ear. Calm as still
water, she told herself. Strong as a bear. Fierce as a wolverine. She opened her eyes again.
The monsters were still there, but the fear was gone.
Arya got to her feet, moving warily. The heads were all around her. She touched one, curious,
wondering if it was real. Her fingertips brushed a massive jaw. It felt real enough. The bone was smooth
beneath her hand, cold and hard to the touch. She ran her fingers down a tooth, black and sharp, a
dagger made of darkness. It made her shiver.
"It's dead," she said aloud. "It's just a skull, it can't hurt me." Yet somehow the monster seemed to know
she was there. She could feel its empty eyes watching her through the gloom, and there was something in


that dim, cavernous room that did not love her. She edged away from the skull and backed into a
second, larger than the first. For an instant she could feel its teeth digging into her shoulder, as if it wanted
a bite of her flesh. Arya whirled, felt leather catch and tear as a huge fang nipped at her jerkin, and then
she was running. Another skull loomed ahead, the biggest monster of all, but Arya did not even slow. She
leapt over a ridge of black teeth as tall as swords, dashed through hungry jaws, and threw herself against
the door.
Her hands found a heavy iron ring set in the wood, and she yanked at it. The door resisted a moment,
before it slowly began to swing
inward, with a creak so loud Arya was certain it could be heard all through the city. She opened the
door just far enough to slip through, into the hallway beyond.
If the room with the monsters had been dark, the hall was the blackest pit in the seven hells. Calm as still
water, Arya told herself, but even when she gave her eyes a moment to adjust, there was nothing to see
but the vague grey outline of the door she had come through. She wiggled her fingers in front of her face,
felt the air move, saw nothing. She was blind. A water dancer sees with all her senses, she reminded
herself. She closed her eyes and steadied her breathing one two three, drank in the quiet, reached out
with her hands.
Her fingers brushed against rough unfinished stone to her left. She followed the wall, her hand skimming
along the surface, taking small gliding steps through the darkness. All halls lead somewhere. "ere there is
a way in, there is a way out. Fear cuts deeper than swords. Arya would not be afraid. It seemed as if she
had been walking a long ways when the wall ended abruptly and a draft of cold air blew past her cheek.
Loose hairs stirred faintly against her skin.
From somewhere far below her, she heard noises. The scrape of boots, the distant sound of voices. A
flickering light brushed the wall ever so faintly, and she saw that she stood at the top of a great black
well, a shaft twenty feet across plunging deep into the earth. Huge stones had been set into the curving
walls as steps, circling down and down, dark as the steps to hell that Old Nan used to tell them of. And
something was coming up out of the darkness, out of the bowels of the earth . . .
Arya peered over the edge and felt the cold black breath on her face. Far below, she saw the light of a
single torch, small as the flame of a candle. Two men, she made out. Their shadows writhed against the
sides of the well, tall as giants. She could hear their voices, echoing up the shaft.
"...found one bastard," one said. "The rest will come soon. A day, two days, a fortnight . . ."
"And when he learns the truth, what will he do?" a second voice asked in the liquid accents of the Free
Cities.
"The gods alone know," the first voice said. Arya could see a wisp of grey smoke drifting up off the
torch, writhing like a snake as it rose. "The fools tried to kill his son, and what's worse, they made a
mummer's farce of it. He's not a man to put that aside. I warn you, the wolf and lion will soon be at each
other's throats, whether we will it or no."
"Too soon, too soon," the voice with the accent complained. "What good is war now? We are not
ready. Delay."


"As well bid me stop time. Do you take me for a wizard?"
The other chuckled. "No less." Flames licked at the cold air. The tall shadows were almost on top of
her. An instant later the man holding the torch climbed into her sight, his companion beside him. Arya
crept back away from the well, dropped to her stomach, and flattened herself against the wall. She held
her breath as the men reached the top of the steps.
"What would you have me do?" asked the torchbearer, a stout man in a leather half cape. Even in heavy
boots, his feet seemed to glide soundlessly over the ground. A round scarred face and a stubble of dark
beard showed under his steel cap, and he wore mail over boiled leather, and a dirk and shortsword at his
belt. It seemed to Arya there was something oddly familiar about him.
"If one Hand can die, why not a second?" replied the man with the accent and the forked yellow beard.
"You have danced the dance before, my friend." He was no one Arya had ever seen before, she was
certain of it. Grossly fat, yet he seemed to walk lightly, carrying his weight on the balls of his feet as a
water dancer might. His rings glimmered in the torchlight, red-gold and pale silver, crusted with rubies,
sapphires, slitted yellow tiger eyes. Every finger wore a ring; some had two.
"Before is not now, and this Hand is not the other," the scarred man said as they stepped out into the
hall. Still as stone, Arya told herself, quiet as a shadow. Blinded by the blaze of their own torch, they did
not see her pressed flat against the stone, only a few feet away.
"Perhaps so," the forked beard replied, pausing to catch his breath after the long climb. "Nonetheless,
we must have time. The princess is with child. The khal will not bestir himself until his son is born. You
know how they are, these savages."
The man with the torch pushed at something. Arya heard a deep rumbling. A huge slab of rock, red in
the torchlight, slid down out of the ceiling with a resounding crash that almost made her cry out. Where
the entry to the well had been was nothing but stone, solid and unbroken.
"If he does not bestir himself soon, it may be too late," the stout man in the steel cap said. "This is no
longer a game for two players, if ever it was. Stannis Baratheon and Lysa Arryn have fled beyond my
reach, and the whispers say they are gathering swords around them. The Knight of Flowers writes
Highgarden, urging his lord father to send his sister to court. The girl is a maid of fourteen, sweet and
beautiful and tractable, and Lord Renly and Ser Loras intend that Robert should bed her, wed her, and
make a new queen. Littlefinger
... the gods only know what game Littlefinger is playing. Yet Lord Stark's the one who troubles my
sleep. He has the bastard, he has the book, and soon enough he'll have the truth. And now his wife has
abducted Tyrion Lannister, thanks to Littlefinger's meddling. Lord Tywin will take that for an outrage,
and Jaime has a queer affection for the Imp. If the Lannisters move north, that will bring the Tullys in as
well. Delay, you say. Make haste, I reply. Even the finest of jugglers cannot keep a hundred balls in the
air forever."
"You are more than a juggler, old friend. You are a true sorcerer. All I ask is that you work your magic
awhile longer." They started down the hall in the direction Arya had come, past the room with the
monsters.


"What I can do, I will," the one with the torch said softly. "I must have gold, and another fifty birds."
She let them get a long way ahead, then went creeping after them. Quiet as a shadow.
"So many?" The voices were fainter as the light dwindled ahead of her. "The ones you need are hard to
find . . . so young, to know their letters . . . perhaps older . . . not die so easy . . ."
"No. The younger are safer . . . treat them gently if they kept their tongues the risk . . ."
Long after their voices had faded away, Arya could still see the light of the torch, a smoking star that bid
her follow. Twice it seemed to disappear, but she kept on straight, and both times she found herself at the
top of steep, narrow stairs, the torch glimmering far below her. She hurried after it, down and down.
Once she stumbled over a rock and fell against the wall, and her hand found raw earth supported by
timbers, whereas before the tunnel had been dressed stone.
She must have crept after them for miles. Finally they were gone, but there was no place to go but
forward. She found the wall again and followed, blind and lost, pretending that Nymeria was padding
along beside her in the darkness. At the end she was knee-deep in foulsmelling water, wishing she could
dance upon it as Syrio might have, and wondering if she'd ever see light again. It was full dark when
finally Arya emerged into the night air.
She found herself standing at the mouth of a sewer where it emptied into the river. She stank so badly
that she stripped right there, dropping her soiled clothing on the riverbank as she dove into the deep
black waters. She swam until she felt clean, and crawled out shivering. Some riders went past along the
river road as Arya was
washing her clothes, but if they saw the scrawny naked girl scrubbing her rags in the moonlight, they
took no notice.
She was miles from the castle, but from anywhere in King's Landing you needed only to look up to see
the Red Keep high on Aegon's Hill, so there was no danger of losing her way. Her clothes were almost
dry by the time she reached the gatehouse. The portcullis was down and the gates barred, so she turned
aside to a postern door. The gold cloaks who had the watch sneered when she told them to let her in.
"Off with you," one said. "The kitchen scraps are gone, and we'll have no begging after dark."
:, I'm not a beggar," she said. "I live here."
'I said, off with you. Do you need a clout on the ear to help your hearing?"
"I want to see my father."
The guards exchanged a glance. "I want to fuck the queen myself, for all the good it does me," the
younger one said.
The older scowled. "Who's this father of yours, boy, the city ratcatcher?"
"The Hand of the King," Arya told him.


Both men laughed, but then the older one swung his fist at her, casually, as a man would swat a dog.
Arya saw the blow coming even before it began. She danced back out of the way, untouched. "I'm not a
boy," she spat at them. "I'm Arya Stark of Winterfell, and if you lay a hand on me my lord father will have
both your heads on spikes. If you don't believe me, fetch Jory Cassel or Vayon Poole from the Tower of
the Hand." She put her hands on her hips. "Now are you going to open the gate, or do you need a clout
on the ear to help your hearing?"
Her father was alone in the solar when Harwin and Fat Tom marched her in, an oil lamp glowing softly at
his elbow. He was bent over the biggest book Arya had ever seen, a great thick tome with cracked
yellow pages of crabbed script, bound between faded leather covers, but he closed it to listen to
Harwin's report. His face was stern as he sent the men away with thanks.
"You realize I had half my guard out searching for you?" Eddard Stark said when they were alone.
"Septa Mordane is beside herself with fear. She's in the sept praying for your safe return. Arya, you
know you are never to go beyond the castle gates without my leave."
"I didn't go out the gates," she blurted. "Well, I didn't mean to. I was down in the dungeons, only they
turned into this tunnel. It was all dark, and I didn't have a torch or a candle to see by, so I had to follow.
I couldn't go back the way I came on account of the monsters. Father, they were talking about killing
you! Not the monsters, the two men.
They didn't see me, I was being still as stone and quiet as a shadow, but I heard them. They said you
had a book and a bastard and if one Hand could die, why not a second? Is that the book? Jon's the
bastard, I bet."
"Jon? Arya, what are you talking about? Who said this?"
"They did," she told him. "There was a fat one with rings and a forked yellow beard, and another in mail
and a steel cap, and the fat one said they had to delay but the other one told him he couldn't keep
juggling and the wolf and the lion were going to eat each other and it was a mummer's farce." She tried to
remember the rest. She hadn't quite understood everything she'd heard, and now it was all mixed up in
her head. "The fat one said the princess was with child. The one in the steel cap, he had the torch, he said
that they had to hurry. I think he was a wizard."
"A wizard," said Ned, unsmiling. "Did he have a long white beard and tall pointed hat speckled with
stars?"
"No! It wasn't like Old Nan's stories. He didn't look like a wizard, but the fat one said he was."
"I warn you, Arya, if you're spinning this thread of air-"
"No, I told you, it was in the dungeons, by the place with the secret wall. I was chasing cats, and well . .
." She screwed up her face. If she admitted knocking over Prince Tommen, he would be really angry
with her. ". . . well, I went in this window. That's where I found the monsters."
"Monsters and wizards," her father said. "It would seem you've had quite an adventure. These men you
heard, you say they spoke of juggling and mummery?"
"Yes," Arya admitted, "only-"


"Arya, they were mummers," her father told her. "There must be a dozen troupes in King's Landing right
now, come to make some coin off the tourney crowds. I'm not certain what these two were doing in the
castle, but perhaps the king has asked for a show."
"No." She shook her head stubbornly. "They weren't-"
"You shouldn't be following people about and spying on them in any case. Nor do I cherish the notion of
my daughter climbing in strange windows after stray cats. Look at you, sweetling. Your arms are covered
with scratches. This has gone on long enough. Tell Syrio Forel that I want a word with hirn-"
He was interrupted by a short, sudden knock. "Lord Eddard, pardons," Desmond called out, opening
the door a crack, "but there's a black brother here begging audience. He says the matter is urgent. I
thought you would want to know."
"My door is always open to the Night's Watch," Father said.
Desmond ushered the man inside. He was stooped and ugly, with an unkempt beard and unwashed
clothes, yet Father greeted him pleasantly and asked his name.
"Yoren, as it please m1ord. My pardons for the hour." He bowed to Arya. "And this must be your son.
He has your look."
"I'm a girl," Arya said, exasperated. If the old man was down from the Wall, he must have come by way
of Winterfell. "Do you know my brothers?" she asked excitedly. "Robb and Bran are at Winterfell, and
Jon's on the Wall. Jon Snow, he's in the Night's Watch too, you must know him, he has a direwolf, a
white one with red eyes. Is Jon a ranger yet? I'm Arya Stark." The old man in his smelly black clothes
was looking at her oddly, but Arya could not seem to stop talking. "When you ride back to the Wall,
would you bring Jon a letter if I wrote one?" She wished Jon were here right now. He'd believe her about
the dungeons and the fat man with the forked beard and the wizard in the steel cap.
"My daughter often forgets her courtesies," Eddard Stark said with a faint smile that softened his words.
"I beg your forgiveness, Yoren. Did my brother Benjen send you?"
"No one sent me, m1ord, saving old Mormont. I'm here to find men for the Wall, and when Robert next
holds court, I'll bend the knee and cry our need, see if the king and his Hand have some scum in the
dungeons they'd be well rid of. You might say as Benjen Stark is why we're talking, though. His blood
ran black. Made him my brother as much as yours. It's for his sake I'm come. Rode hard, I did, near
killed my horse the way I drove her, but I left the others well behind."
"The others?"
Yoren spat. "Sellswords and freeriders and like trash. That inn was full o' them, and I saw them take the
scent. The scent of blood or the scent of gold, they smell the same in the end. Not all o' them made for
King's Landing, either. Some went galloping for Casterly Rock, and the Rock lies closer. Lord Tywin will
have gotten the word by now, you can count on it."
Father frowned. "What word is this?"


Yoren eyed Arya. "One best spoken in private, m1ord, begging your pardons."
"As you say. Desmond, see my daughter to her chambers." He kissed her on the brow. "We'll finish our
talk on the morrow."
Arya stood rooted to the spot. "Nothing bad's happened to Jon, has it?" she asked Yoren. "Or Uncle
Benjen?"
"Well, as to Stark, I can't say. The Snow boy was well enough when I left the Wall. It's not them as
concerns me."
Desmond took her hand. "Come along, milady. You heard your lord father."
Arya had no choice but to go with him, wishing it had been Fat Tom. With Tom, she might have been
able to linger at the door on some excuse and hear what Yoren was saying, but Desmond was too
singleminded to trick. "How many guards does my father have?" she asked him as they descended to her
bedchamber.
"Here at King's Landing? Fifty."
"You wouldn't let anyone kill him, would you?" she asked.
Desmond laughed. "No fear on that count, little lady. Lord Eddard's guarded night and day. He'll come
to no harm."
"The Lannisters have more than fifty men," Arya pointed out.
"So they do, but every northerner is worth ten of these southron swords, so you can sleep easy."
"What if a wizard was sent to kill him?"
"Well, as to that," Desmond replied, drawing his longsword, "wizards die the same as other men, once
you cut their heads off."
EDDARD
"Robert, I beg of you," Ned pleaded, "hear what you are saying. You are talking of murdering a child."
"The whore is pregnant!" The king's fist slammed down on the council table loud as a thunderclap. "I
warned you this would happen, Ned. Back in the barrowlands, I warned you, but you did not care to
hear it. Well, you'll hear it now. I want them dead, mother and child both, and that fool Viserys as well. Is
that plain enough for you? I want them dead."
The other councillors were all doing their best to pretend that they were somewhere else. No doubt they
were wiser than he was. Eddard Stark had seldom felt quite so alone. "You will dishonor yourself forever
if you do this."


"Then let it be on my head, so long as it is done. I am not so blind that I cannot see the shadow of the
axe when it is hanging over my own neck."
"There is no axe," Ned told his king. "Only the shadow of a shadow, twenty years removed . . . if it
exists at all."
"If?" Varys asked softly, wringing powdered hands together. "My lord, you wrong me. Would I bring
ties to king and council?"
Ned looked at the eunuch coldly. "You would bring us the whisperings of a traitor half a world away, my
lord. Perhaps Mormont is wrong. Perhaps he is lying."
"Ser Jorah would not dare deceive me," Varys said with a sly smile. "Rely on it, my lord. The princess is
with child."
"So you say. If you are wrong, we need not fear. If the girl miscarries, we need not fear. If she births a
daughter in place of a son, we need not fear. If the babe dies in infancy, we need not fear."
"But if it is a boy?" Robert insisted. "If he lives?"
"The narrow sea would still lie between us. I shall fear the Dothraki the day they teach their horses to run
on water."
The king took a swallow of wine and glowered at Ned across the council table. "So you would counsel
me to do nothing until the dragonspawn has landed his army on my shores, is that it?"
"This 'dragonspawn' is in his mother's belly," Ned said. "Even Aegon did no conquering until after he was
weaned."
"Gods! You are stubborn as an aurochs, Stark." The king looked around the council table. "Have the
rest of you mislaid your tongues? Will no one talk sense to this frozen-faced fool?"
Varys gave the king an unctuous smile and laid a soft hand on Ned's sleeve. "I understand your qualms,
Lord Eddard, truly I do. It gave me no joy to bring this grievous news to council. It is a terrible thing we
contemplate, a vile thing. Yet we who presume to rule must do vile things for the good of the realm,
howevermuch it pains us."
Lord Renly shrugged. "The matter seems simple enough to me. We ought to have had Viserys and his
sister killed years ago, but His Grace my brother made the mistake of listening to Jon Arryn."
"Mercy is never a mistake, Lord Renly," Ned replied. "On the Trident, Ser Barristan here cut down a
dozen good men, Robert's friends and mine. When they brought him to us, grievously wounded and near
death, Roose Bolton urged us to cut his throat, but your brother said, 'I will not kill a man for loyalty, nor
for fighting well,' and sent his own maester to tend Ser Barristan's wounds." He gave the king a long cool
look. "Would that man were here today."
Robert had shame enough to blush. "It was not the same," he complained. "Ser Barristan was a knight of
the Kingsguard."


"Whereas Daenerys is a fourteen-year-old girl." Ned knew he was pushing this well past the point of
wisdom, yet he could not keep silent. "Robert, I ask you, what did we rise against Aerys Targaryen for, if
not to put an end to the murder of children?"
"To put an end to Targaryens!" the king growled.
"Your Grace, I never knew you to fear Rhaegar." Ned fought to keep the scorn out of his voice, and
failed. "Have the years so unmanned you that you tremble at the shadow of an unborn child?"
Robert purpled. "No more, Ned," he warned, pointing. "Not another word. Have you forgotten who is
king here?"
"No, Your Grace," Ned replied. "Have you?"
"Enough!" the king bellowed. "I am sick of talk. I'll be done with this, or be damned. What say you all?"
"She must be killed," Lord Renly declared.
"We have no choice," murmured Varys. "Sadly, sadly
Ser Barristan Selmy raised his pale blue eyes from the table and said, "Your Grace, there is honor in
facing an enemy on the battlefield, but none in killing him in his mother's womb. Forgive me, but I must
stand with Lord Eddard."
Grand Maester Pycelle cleared his throat, a process that seemed to take some minutes. "My order
serves the realm, not the ruler. Once I counseled King Aerys as loyally as I counsel King Robert now, so
I bear this girl child of his no ill will. Yet I ask you this-should war come again, how many soldiers will
die? How many towns will burn? How many children will be ripped from their mothers to perish on the
end of a spear?" He stroked his luxuriant white beard, infinitely sad, infinitely weary. "Is it not wiser, even
kinder, that Daenerys Targaryen should die now so that tens of thousands might live?"
"Kinder," Varys said. "Oh, well and truly spoken, Grand Maester. It is so true. Should the gods in their
caprice grant Daenerys Targaryen a son, the realm must bleed."
Littlefinger was the last. As Ned looked to him, Lord Petyr stifled a yawn. "When you find yourself in
bed with an ugly woman, the best thing to do is close your eyes and get on with it," he declared. "Waiting
won't make the maid any prettier. Kiss her and be done with it."
"Kiss her?" Ser Barristan repeated, aghast.
"A steel kiss," said Littlefinger.
Robert turned to face his Hand. "Well, there it is, Ned. You and Selmy stand alone on this matter. The
only question that remains is, who can we find to kill her?"
"Mormont craves a royal pardon," Lord Renly reminded them.
"Desperately," Varys said, "yet he craves life even more. By now, the princess nears Vaes Dothrak,
where it is death to draw a blade. If I told you what the Dothraki would do to the poor man who used


one on a khaleesi, none of you would sleep tonight." He stroked a powdered cheek. "Now, poison . . .
the tears of Lys, let us say. Khal Drogo need never know it was not a natural death."
Grand Maester Pycelle's sleepy eyes flicked open. He squinted suspiciously at the eunuch.
"Poison is a coward's weapon," the king complained.
Ned had heard enough. "You send hired knives to kill a fourteenyear-old girl and still quibble about
honor?" He pushed back his chair and stood. "Do it yourself, Robert. The man who passes the sentence
should swing the sword. Look her in the eyes before you kill her. See her tears, hear her last words. You
owe her that much at least."
"Gods," the king swore, the word exploding out of him as if he could barely contain his fury. "You mean
it, damn you." He reached for the flagon of wine at his elbow, found it empty, and flung it away to shatter
against the wall. "I am out of wine and out of patience. Enough of this. Just have it done."
"I will not be part of murder, Robert. Do as you will, but do not ask me to fix my seal to it."
For a moment Robert did not seem to understand what Ned was saying. Defiance was not a dish he
tasted often. Slowly his face changed as comprehension came. His eyes narrowed and a flush crept up
his neck past the velvet collar. He pointed an angry finger at Ned. "You are the King's Hand, Lord Stark.
You will do as I command you, or I'll find me a Hand who will."
"I wish him every success." Ned unfastened the heavy clasp that clutched at the folds of his cloak, the
ornate silver hand that was his badge of office. He laid it on the table in front of the king, saddened by the
memory of the man who had pinned it on him, the friend he had loved. "I thought you a better man than
this, Robert. I thought we had made a nobler king."
Robert's face was purple. "Out, " he croaked, choking on his rage. "Out, damn you, I'm done with you.
What are you waiting for? Go, run back to Winterfell. And make certain I never look on your face again,
or I swear, I'll have your head on a spike!"
Ned bowed, and turned on his heel without another word. He could feel Robert's eyes on his back. As
he strode from the council chambers, the discussion resumed with scarcely a pause. "On Braavos there is
a society called the Faceless Men," Grand Maester Pycelle offered.
"Do you have any idea how costly they are?" Littlefinger complained. "You could hire an army of
common sellswords for half the price, and that's for a merchant. I don't dare think what they might ask
for a princess."
The closing of the door behind him silenced the voices. Ser Boros Blount was stationed outside the
chamber, wearing the long white cloak and armor of the Kingsguard. He gave Ned a quick, curious
glance from the corner of his eye, but asked no questions.
The day felt heavy and oppressive as he crossed the bailey back to the Tower of the Hand. He could
feel the threat of rain in the air. Ned


would have welcomed it. It might have made him feel a trifle less unclean. When he reached his solar, he
summoned Vayon Poole. The steward came at once. "You sent for me, my lord Hand?"
"Hand no longer," Ned told him. "The king and I have quarreled. We shall be returning to Winterfell."
"I shall begin making arrangements at once, my lord. We will need a fortnight to ready everything for the
journey."
"We may not have a fortnight. We may not have a day. The king mentioned something about seeing my
head on a spike." Ned frowned. He did not truly believe the king would harm him, not Robert. He was
angry now, but once Ned was safely out of sight, his rage would cool as it always did.
Always? Suddenly, uncomfortably, he found himself recalling Rhaegar Targaryen. Fifteen years dead,
yet Robert hates him as much as ever. It was a disturbing notion . . . and there was the other matter, the
business with Catelyn and the dwarf that Yoren had warned him of last night. That would come to light
soon, as sure as sunrise, and with the king in such a black fury . . . Robert might not care a fig for Tyrion
Lannister, but it would touch on his pride, and there was no telling what the queen might do.
"It might be safest if I went on ahead," he told Poole. "I will take my daughters and a few guardsmen.
The rest of you can follow when you are ready. Inform Jory, but tell no one else, and do nothing until the
girls and I have gone. The castle is full of eyes and ears, and I would rather my plans were not known."
"As you command, my lord."
When he had gone, Eddard Stark went to the window and sat brooding. Robert had left him no choice
that he could see. He ought to thank him. It would be good to return to Winterfell. He ought never have
left. His sons were waiting there. Perhaps he and Catelyn would make a new son together when he
returned, they were not so old yet. And of late he had often found himself dreaming of snow, of the deep
quiet of the wolfswood at night.
And yet, the thought of leaving angered him as well. So much was still undone. Robert and his council of
cravens and flatterers would beggar the realm if left unchecked . . . or, worse, sell it to the Lannisters in
payment of their loans. And the truth of Jon Arryn's death still eluded him. Oh, he had found a few
pieces, enough to convince him that Jon had indeed been murdered, but that was no more than the spoor
of an animal on the forest floor. He had not sighted the beast itself yet, though he sensed it was there,
lurking, hidden, treacherous.
It struck him suddenly that he might return to Winterfell by sea.
Ned was no sailor, and ordinarily would have preferred the kingsroad, but if he took ship he could stop
at Dragonstone and speak with Stannis Baratheon. Pycelle had sent a raven off across the water, with a
polite letter from Ned requesting Lord Stannis to return to his seat on the small council. As yet, there had
been no reply, but the silence only deepened his suspicions. Lord Stannis shared the secret Jon Arryn
had died for, he was certain of it. The truth he sought might very well be waiting for him on the ancient
island fortress of House Targaryen.
And when you have it, what then? Some secrets are safer kept hidden. Some secrets are too dangerous
to share, even with those you love and trust. Ned slid the dagger that Catelyn had brought him out of the
sheath on his belt. The Imp's knife. Why would the dwarf want Bran dead? To silence him, surely.


Another secret, or only a different strand of the same web?
Could Robert be part of it? He would not have thought so, but once he would not have thought Robert
could command the murder of women and children either. Catelyn had tried to warn him. You knew the
man, she had said. The king is a stranger to you. The sooner he was quit of King's Landing, the better. If
there was a ship sailing north on the morrow, it would be well to be on it.
He summoned Vayon Poole again and sent him to the docks to make inquiries, quietly but quickly. "Find
me a fast ship with a skilled captain," he told the steward. "I care nothing for the size of its cabins or the
quality of its appointments, so long as it is swift and safe. I wish to leave at once."
Poole had no sooner taken his leave than Tomard announced a visitor. "Lord Baelish to see you,
m'lord."
Ned was half-tempted to turn him away, but thought better of it. He was not free yet; until he was, he
must play their games. "Show him in, Tom."
Lord Petyr sauntered into the solar as if nothing had gone amiss that morning. He wore a slashed velvet
doublet in cream-and-silver, a grey silk cloak trimmed with black fox, and his customary mocking smile.
Ned greeted him coldly. "Might I ask the reason for this visit, Lord Baelish?"
"I won't detain you long, I'm on my way to dine with Lady Tanda. Lamprey pie and roast suckling pig.
She has some thought to wed me to her younger daughter, so her table is always astonishing. If truth be
told, I'd sooner marry the pig, but don't tell her. I do love lamprey pie."
"Don't let me keep you from your eels, my lord," Ned said with icy disdain. "At the moment, I cannot
think of anyone whose company I desire less than yours."
"Oh, I'm certain if you put your mind to it, you could come up with a few names. Varys, say. Cersei. Or
Robert. His Grace is most wroth with you. He went on about you at some length after you took your
leave of us this morning. The words insolence and ingratitude came into it frequently, I seem to recall."
Ned did not honor that with a reply. Nor did he offer his guest a seat, but Littlefinger took one anyway.
"After you stormed out, it was left to me to convince them not to hire the Faceless Men," he continued
blithely. "Instead Varys will quietly let it be known that we'll make a lord of whoever does in the
Targaryen girl."
Ned was disgusted. "So now we grant titles to assassins."
Littlefinger shrugged. "Titles are cheap. The Faceless Men are expensive. If truth be told, I did the
Targaryen girl more good than you with all your talk of honor. Let some sellsword drunk on visions of
lordship try to kill her. Likely he'll make a botch of it, and afterward the Dothraki will be on their guard. If
we'd sent a Faceless Man after her, she'd be as good as buried."
Ned frowned. "You sit in council and talk of ugly women and steel kisses, and now you expect me to
believe that you tried to protect the girl? How big a fool do you take me for?"
"Well, quite an enormous one, actually," said Littlefinger, laughing.


"Do you always find murder so amusing, Lord Baelish?"
"It's not murder I find amusing, Lord Stark, it's you. You rule like a man dancing on rotten ice. I daresay
you will make a noble splash. I believe I heard the first crack this morning."
"The first and last," said Ned. "I've had my fill."
"When do you mean to return to Winterfell, my lord?"
"As soon as I can. What concern is that of yours?"
"None . . . but if perchance you're still here come evenfall, I'd be pleased to take you to this brothel your
man Jory has been searching for so ineffectually." Littlefinger smiled. "And I won't even tell the Lady
Catelyn."
CATELYN
"My lady, you should have sent word of your coming," Ser Donnel Waynwood told her as their horses
climbed the pass. "We would have sent an escort. The high road is not as safe as it once was, for a party
as small as yours."
"We learned that to our sorrow, Ser Donnel," Catelyn said. Sometimes she felt as though her heart had
turned to stone; six brave men had died to bring her this far, and she could not even find it in her to weep
for them. Even their names were fading. "The clansmen harried us day and night. We lost three men in the
first attack, and two more in the second, and Lannister's serving man died of a fever when his wounds
festered. When we heard your men approaching, I thought us doomed for certain." They had drawn up
for a last desperate fight, blades in hand and backs to the rock. The dwarf had been whetting the edge of
his axe and making some mordant jest when Bronn spotted the banner the riders carried before them, the
moon-and-falcon of House Arryn, sky-blue and white. Catelyn had never seen a more welcome sight.
"The clans have grown bolder since Lord Jon died," Ser Donnel said. He was a stocky youth of twenty
years, earnest and homely, with a wide nose and a shock of thick brown hair. "If it were up to me, I
would take a hundred men into the mountains, root them out of their fastnesses, and teach them some
sharp lessons, but your sister has
forbidden it. She would not even permit her knights to fight in the Hand's tourney. She wants all our
swords kept close to home, to defend the Vale . . . against what, no one is certain. Shadows, some say."
He looked at her anxiously, as if he had suddenly remembered who she was. "I hope I have not spoken
out of turn, my lady. I meant no offense."
"Frank talk does not offend me, Ser Donnel." Catelyn knew what her sister feared. Not shadows,
Lannisters, she thought to herself, glancing back to where the dwarf rode beside Bronn. The two of them
had grown thick as thieves since Chiggen had died. The little man was more cunning than she liked.
When they had entered the mountains, he had been her captive, bound and helpless. What was he now?
Her captive still, yet he rode along with a dirk through his belt and an axe strapped to his saddle, wearing
the shadowskin cloak he'd won dicing with the singer and the chainmail hauberk he'd taken off Chiggen's


corpse. Two score men flanked the dwarf and the rest of her ragged band, knights and men-at-arms in
service to her sister Lysa and Jon Arryn's young son, and yet Tyrion betrayed no hint of fear. Could I be
wrong? Catelyn wondered, not for the first time. Could he be innocent after all, of Bran and Jon Arryn
and all the rest? And if he was, what did that make her? Six men had died to bring him here.
Resolute, she pushed her doubts away. "When we reach your keep, I would take it kindly if you could
send for Maester Colemon at once. Ser Rodrik is feverish from his wounds." More than once she had
feared the gallant old knight would not survive the journey. Toward the end he could scarcely sit his
horse, and Bronn had urged her to leave him to his fate, but Catelyn would not hear of it. They had tied
him in the saddle instead, and she had commanded Marillion the singer to watch over him.
Ser Donnel hesitated before he answered. "The Lady Lysa has commanded the maester to remain at the
Eyrie at all times, to care for Lord Robert," he said. "We have a septon at the gate who tends to our
wounded. He can see to your man's hurts."
Catelyn had more faith in a maester's learning than a septon's prayers. She was about to say as much
when she saw the battlements ahead, long parapets built into the very stone of the mountains on either
side of them. Where the pass shrank to a narrow defile scarce wide enough for four men to ride abreast,
twin watchtowers clung to the rocky slopes, joined by a covered bridge of weathered grey stone that
arched above the road. Silent faces watched from arrow slits in tower, battlements, and bridge. When
they had climbed almost to the top, a knight rode out to meet them. His horse and his armor were
grey, but his cloak was the rippling blue-and-red of Riverrun, and a shiny black fish, wrought in gold and
obsidian, pinned its folds against his shoulder. "Who would pass the Bloody Gate?" he called.
"Ser Donnel Waynwood, with the Lady Catelyn Stark and her companions," the young knight answered.
The Knight of the Gate lifted his visor. "I thought the lady looked familiar. You are far from home, little
Cat."
"And you, Uncle," she said, smiling despite all she had been through. Hearing that hoarse, smoky voice
again took her back twenty years, to the days of her childhood.
"My home is at my back," he said gruffly.
"Your home is in my heart," Catelyn told him. "Take off your helm. I would look on your face again."
"The years have not improved it, I fear," Brynden Tully said, but when he lifted off the helm, Catelyn saw
that he lied. His features were lined and weathered, and time had stolen the auburn from his hair and left
him only grey, but the smile was the same, and the bushy eyebrows fat as caterpillars, and the laughter in
his deep blue eyes. "Did Lysa know you were coming?"
"There was no time to send word ahead," Catelyn told him. The others were coming up behind her. "I
fear we ride before the storm, Uncle."
"May we enter the Vale?" Ser Donnel asked. The Waynwoods were ever ones for ceremony.
"In the name of Robert Arryn, Lord of the Eyrie, Defender of the Vale, True Warden of the East, I bid
you enter freely, and charge you to keep his peace," Ser Brynden replied. "Come."


And so she rode behind him, beneath the shadow of the Bloody Gate where a dozen armies had dashed
themselves to pieces in the Age of Heroes. On the far side of the stoneworks, the mountains opened up
suddenly upon a vista of green fields, blue sky, and snowcapped mountains that took her breath away.
The Vale of Arryn bathed in the morning light.
It stretched before them to the misty cast, a tranquil land of rich black soil, wide slow-moving rivers, and
hundreds of small lakes that shone like mirrors in the sun, protected on all sides by its sheltering peaks.
Wheat and corn and barley grew high in its fields, and even in Highgarden the pumpkins were no larger
nor the fruit any sweeter than here. They stood at the western end of the valley, where the high road
crested the last pass and began its winding descent to the bottomlands two miles below. The Vale was
narrow here, no more than a half day's ride across, and the northern mountains seemed so close that
Catelyn could almost reach out and touch them. Looming over them all was the jagged peak called the
Giant's Lance, a mountain that even mountains looked up to, its head lost in icy mists three and a half
miles above the valley floor. Over its massive western shoulder flowed the ghost torrent of Alyssa's
Tears. Even from this distance, Catelyn could make out the shining silver thread, bright against the dark
stone.
When her uncle saw that she had stopped, he moved his horse closer and pointed. "It's there, beside
Alyssa's Tears. All you can see from here is a flash of white every now and then, if you look hard and the
sun hits the walls just right."
Seven towers, Ned had told her, like white daggers thrust into the belly of the sky, so high you can stand
on the parapets and look down on the clouds. "How long a ride?" she asked.
"We can be at the mountain by evenfall," Uncle Brynden said, "but the climb will take another day."
Ser Rodrik Cassel spoke up from behind. "My lady," he said, "I fear I can go no farther today." His face
sagged beneath his ragged, newgrown whiskers, and he looked so weary Catelyn feared he might fall off
his horse.
"Nor should you," she said. "You have done all I could have asked of you, and a hundred times more.
My uncle will see me the rest of the way to the Eyrie. Lannister must come with me, but there is no
reason that you and the others should not rest here and recover your strength."
"We should be honored to have them to guest," Ser Donnel said with the grave courtesy of the young.
Beside Ser Rodrik, only Bronn, Ser Willis Wode, and Marillion the singer remained of the party that had
ridden with her from the inn by the crossroads.
"My lady," Marillion said, riding forward. "I beg you allow me to accompany you to the Eyrie, to see the
end of the tale as I saw its beginnings." The boy sounded haggard, yet strangely determined; he had a
fevered shine to his eyes.
Catelyn had never asked the singer to ride with them; that choice he had made himself, and how he had
come to survive the journey when so many braver men lay dead and unburied behind them, she could
never say. Yet here he was, with a scruff of beard that made him look almost a man. Perhaps she owed
him something for having come this far. "Very well," she told him.


"I'll come as well," Bronn announced.
She liked that less well. Without Bronn she would never have reached the Vale, she knew; the sellsword
was as fierce a fighter as she had ever seen, and his sword had helped cut them through to safety.
Yet for all that, Catelyn misliked the man. Courage he had, and strength, but there was no kindness in
him, and little loyalty. And she had seen him riding beside Lannister far too often, talking in low voices
and laughing at some private joke. She would have preferred to separate him from the dwarf here and
now, but having agreed that Marillion might continue to the Eyrie, she could see no gracious way to deny
that same right to Bronn. "As you wish," she said, although she noted that he had not actually asked her
permission.
Ser Willis Wode remained with Ser Rodrik, a soft-spoken septon fussing over their wounds. Their
horses were left behind as well, poor ragged things. Ser Donnel promised to send birds ahead to the
Eyrie and the Gates of the Moon with the word of their coming. Fresh mounts were brought forth from
the stables, surefooted mountain stock with shaggy coats, and within the hour they set forth once again.
Catelyn rode beside her uncle as they began the descent to the valley floor. Behind came Bronn, Tyrion
Lannister, Marillion, and six of Brynden's men.
Not until they were a third of the way down the mountain path, well out of earshot of the others, did
Brynden Tully turn to her and say, "So, child. Tell me about this storm of yours."
"I have not been a child in many years, Uncle," Catelyn said, but she told him nonetheless. It took longer
than she would have believed to tell it all, Lysa's letter and Bran's fall, the assassin's dagger and
Littlefinger and her chance meeting with Tyrion Lannister in the crossroadsinn.
Her uncle listened silently, heavy brows shadowing his eyes as his frown grew deeper. Brynden Tully
had always known how to listen . . . to anyone but her father. He was Lord Hoster's brother, younger by
five years, but the two of them had been at war as far back as Catelyn could remember. During one of
their louder quarrels, when Catelyn was eight, Lord Hoster had called Brynden "the black goat of the
Tully flock." Laughing, Brynden had pointed out that the sigil of their house was a leaping trout, so he
ought to be a black fish rather than a black goat, and from that day forward he had taken it as his
personal emblem.
The war had not ended until the day she and Lysa had been wed. It was at their wedding feast that
Brynden told his brother he was leaving Riverrun to serve Lysa and her new husband, the Lord of the
Eyrie. Lord Hoster had not spoken his brother's name since, from what Edmure told her in his infrequent
letters.
Nonetheless, during all those years of Catelyn's girlhood, it had been Brynden the Blackfish to whom
Lord Hoster's children had run
with their tears and their tales, when Father was too busy and Mother too ill. Catelyn, Lysa, Edmure . . .
and yes, even Petyr Baelish, their father's ward . . . he had listened to them all patiently, as he listened
now, laughing at their triumphs and sympathizing with their childish misfortunes.
When she was done, her uncle remained silent for a long time, as his horse negotiated the steep, rocky


trail. "Your father must be told," he said at last. "If the Lannisters should march, Winterfell is remote and
the Vale walled up behind its mountains, but Riverrun lies right in their path."
"I'd had the same fear," Catelyn admitted. "I shall ask Maester Colemon to send a bird when we reach
the Eyrie." She had other messages to send as well; the commands that Ned had given her for his
bannermen, to ready the defenses of the north. "What is the mood in the Vale?" she asked.
"Angry," Brynden Tully admitted. "Lord Jon was much loved, and the insult was keenly felt when the
king named Jaime Lannister to an office the Arryns had held for near three hundred years. Lysa has
commanded us to call her son the True Warden of the East, but no one is fooled. Nor is your sister alone
in wondering at the manner of the Hand's death. None dare say Jon was murdered, not openly, but
suspicion casts a long shadow." He gave Catelyn a look, his mouth tight. "And there is the boy."
"The boy? What of him?" She ducked her head as they passed under a low overhang of rock, and
around a sharp turn.
Her uncle's voice was troubled. "Lord Robert," he sighed. "Six years old, sickly, and prone to weep if
you take his dolls away. Jon Arryn's trueborn heir, by all the gods, yet there are some who say he is too
weak to sit his father's seat, Nestor Royce has been high steward these past fourteen years, while Lord
Jon served in King's Landing, and many whisper that he should rule until the boy comes of age. Others
believe that Lysa must marry again, and soon. Already the suitors gather like crows on a battlefield. The
Eyrie is full of them."
"I might have expected that," Catelyn said. Small wonder there; Lysa was still young, and the kingdom of
Mountain and Vale made a handsome wedding gift. "Will Lysa take another husband?"
"She says yes, provided she finds a man who suits her," Brynden Tully said, "but she has already
rejected Lord Nestor and a dozen other suitable men. She swears that this time she will choose her lord
husband."
"You of all people can scarce fault her for that."
Ser Brynden snorted. "Nor do 1, but . . . it seems to me Lysa is
only playing at courtship. She enjoys the sport, but I believe your sister intends to rule herself until her
boy is old enough to be Lord of the Eyrie in truth as well as name."
"A woman can rule as wisely as a man," Catelyn said.
"The tight woman can," her uncle said with a sideways glance. "Make no mistake, Cat. Lysa is not you."
He hesitated a moment. "If truth be told, I fear you may not find your sister as helpful as you would like."
She was puzzled. "What do you mean?"
"The Lysa who came back from King's Landing is not the same girl who went south when her husband
was named Hand. Those years were hard for her. You must know. Lord Arryn was a dutiful husband,
but their marriage was made from politics, not passion."
"As was my own."


"They began the same, but your ending has been happier than your sister's. Two babes stillborn, twice as
many miscarriages, Lord Arryn's death . . . Catelyn, the gods gave Lysa only the one child, and he is all
your sister lives for now, poor boy. Small wonder she fled rather than see him handed over to the
Lannisters. Your sister is afraid, child, and the Lannisters are what she fears most. She ran to the Vale,
stealing away from the Red Keep like a thief in the night, and all to snatch her son out of the lion's mouth .
. . and now you have brought the lion to her door."
"In chains," Catelyn said. A crevasse yawned on her right, falling away into darkness. She reined up her
horse and picked her way along step by careful step.
"Oh?" Her uncle glanced back, to where Tyrion Lannister was making his slow descent behind them. "I
see an axe on his saddle, a dirk at his belt, and a sellsword that trails after him like a hungry shadow.
Where are the chains, sweet one?"
Catelyn shifted uneasily in her seat. "The dwarf is here, and not by choice. Chains or no, he is my
prisoner. Lysa will want him to answer for his crimes no less than 1. It was her own lord husband the
Lannisters murdered, and her own letter that first warned us against them."
Brynden Blackfish gave her a weary smile. "I hope you are right, child," he sighed, in tones that said she
was wrong.
The sun was well to the west by the time the slope began to flatten beneath the hooves of their horses.
The road widened and grew straight, and for the first time Catelyn noticed wildflowers and grasses
growing. Once they reached the valley floor, the going was faster and they made good time, cantering
through verdant greenwoods and sleepy little hamlets, past orchards and golden wheat fields, splashing
324 GEORGL R.R. MARTIN
across a dozen sunlit streams. Her uncle sent a standard-bearer ahead of them, a double banner flying
from his staff; the moon-and-falcon of House Arryn on high, and below it his own black fish. Farm
wagons and merchants' carts and riders from lesser houses moved aside to let them pass.
Even so, it was full dark before they reached the stout castle that stood at the foot of the Giant's Lance.
Torches flickered atop its ramparts, and the horned moon danced upon the dark waters of its moat. The
drawbridge was up and the portcullis down, but Catelyn saw lights burning in the gatehouse and spilling
from the windows of the square towers beyond.
"The Gates of the Moon," her uncle said as the party drew rein. His standard-bearer rode to the edge of
the moat to hail the men in the gatehouse. "Lord Nestor's seat. He should be expecting us. Look up."
Catelyn raised her eyes, up and up and up. At first all she saw was stone and trees, the looming mass of
the great mountain shrouded in night, as black as a starless sky. Then she noticed the glow of distant fires
well above them; a tower keep, built upon the steep side of the mountain, its lights like orange eyes
staring down from above. Above that was another, higher and more distant, and still higher a third, no
more than a flickering spark in the sky. And finally, up where the falcons soared, a flash of white in the
moonlight. Vertigo washed over her as she stared upward at the pale towers, so far above.
"The Eyrie," she heard Marillion murmur, awed.
The sharp voice of Tyrion Lannister broke in. "The Arryns must not be overfond of company. If you're


planning to make us climb that mountain in the dark, I'd rather you kill me here."
"We'll spend the night here and make the ascent on the morrow," Brynden told him.
"I can scarcely wait," the dwarf replied. "How do we get up there? I've no experience at riding goats."
"Mules," Brynden said, smiling.
"There are steps carved into the mountain," Catelyn said. Ned had told her about them when he talked
of his youth here with Robert Baratheon and Jon Arryn.
Her uncle nodded. "It is too dark to see them, but the steps are there. Too steep and narrow for horses,
but mules can manage them most of the way. The path is guarded by three waycastles, Stone and Snow
and Sky. The mules will take us as far up as Sky."
Tyrion Lannister glanced up doubtfully. "And beyond that?"
Brynden smiled. "Beyond that, the path is too steep even for mules. We ascend on foot the rest of the
way. Or perchance you'd prefer to
ride a basket. The Eyrie clings to the mountain directly above Sky, and in its cellars are six great winches
with long iron chains to draw supplies up from below. If you prefer, my lord of Lannister, I can arrange
for you to ride up with the bread and beer and apples."
The dwarf gave a bark of laughter. "Would that I were a pumpkin," he said. "Alas, my lord father would
no doubt be most chagrined if his son of Lannister went to his fate like a load of turnips. If you ascend on
foot, I fear I must do the same. We Lannisters do have a certain pride."
"Pride?" Catelyn snapped. His mocking tone and easy manner made her angry. "Arrogance, some might
call it. Arrogance and avarice and lust for power."
"My brother is undoubtedly arrogant," Tyrion Lannister replied. "My father is the soul of avarice, and my
sweet sister Cersei lusts for power with every waking breath. 1, however, am innocent as a little lamb.
Shall I bleat for you?" He grinned.
The drawbridge came creaking down before she could reply, and they heard the sound of oiled chains
as the portcullis was drawn up. Men-at-arms carried burning brands out to light their way, and her uncle
led them across the moat. Lord Nestor Royce, High Steward of the Vale and Keeper of the Gates of the
Moon, was waiting in the yard to greet them, surrounded by his knights. "Lady Stark," he said, bowing.
He was a massive, barrel-chested man, and his bow was clumsy.
Catelyn dismounted to stand before him. "Lord Nestor," she said. She knew the man only by reputation;
Bronze Yohn's cousin, from a lesser branch of House Royce, yet still a formidable lord in his own right.
"We have had a long and tiring journey. I would beg the hospitality of your roof tonight, if I might."
"My roof is yours, my lady," Lord Nestor returned gruffly, "but your sister the Lady Lysa has sent down
word from the Eyrie. She wishes to see you at once. The rest of your party will be housed here and sent
up at first light."


Her uncle swung off his horse. "What madness is this?" he said bluntly. Brynden Tully had never been a
man to blunt the edge of his words. "A night ascent, with the moon not even full? Even Lysa should know
that's an invitation to a broken neck."
"The mules know the way, Ser Brynden." A wiry girl of seventeen or eighteen years stepped up beside
Lord Nestor. Her dark hair was cropped short and straight around her head, and she wore riding
leathers and a light shirt of silvered ringmail. She bowed to Catelyn, more gracefully than her lord. "I
promise you, my lady, no harm will
come to you. It would be my honor to take you up. I've made the dark climb a hundred times. Mychel
says my father must have been a goat."
She sounded so cocky that Catelyn had to smile. "Do you have a name, child?"
"Mya Stone, if it please you, my lady," the girl said.
It did not please her; it was an effort for Catelyn to keep the smile on her face. Stone was a bastard's
name in the Vale, as Snow was in the north, and Flowers in Highgarden; in each of the Seven Kingdoms,
custom had fashioned a surname for children born with no names of their own. Catelyn had nothing
against this girl, but suddenly she could not help but think of Ned's bastard on the Wall, and the thought
made her angry and guilty, both at once. She struggled to find words for a reply.
Lord Nestor filled the silence. "Mya's a clever girl, and if she vows she will bring you safely to the Lady
Lysa, I believe her. She has not failed me yet."
"Then I put myself in your hands, Mya Stone," Catelyn said. "Lord Nestor, I charge you to keep a close
guard on my prisoner."
"And I charge you to bring the prisoner a cup of wine and a nicely crisped capon, before he dies of
hunger," Lannister said. "A girl would be pleasant as well, but I suppose that's too much to ask of you."
The sellsword Bronn laughed aloud.
Lord Nestor ignored the banter. "As you say, my lady, so it will be done." Only then did he look at the
dwarf. "See our lord of Lannister to a tower cell, and bring him meat and mead."
Catelyn took her leave of her uncle and the others as Tyrion Lannister was led off, then followed the
bastard girl through the castle. Two mules were waiting in the upper bailey, saddled and ready. Mya
helped her mount one while a guardsman in a sky-blue cloak opened the narrow postern gate. Beyond
was dense forest of pine and spruce, and the mountain like a black wall, but the steps were there,
chiseled deep into the rock, ascending into the sky. "Some people find it easier if they close their eyes,"
Mya said as she led the mules through the gate into the dark wood. "When they get frightened or dizzy,
sometimes they hold on to the mule too tight. They don't like that."
"I was born a Tully and wed to a Stark," Catelyn said. "I do not frighten easily. Do you plan to light a
torch?" The steps were black as pitch.
The girl made a face. "Torches just blind you. On a clear night like this, the moon and the stars are
enough. Mychel says I have the eyes of the owl." She mounted and urged her mule up the first step.
Catelyn's animal followed of its own accord.


A GAN4E OF THRONES 327
"You mentioned Mychel before," Catelyn said. The mules set the pace, slow but steady. She was
perfectly content with that.
"Mychel's my love," Mya explained. "Mychel Redfort. He's squire to Ser Lyn Corbray. We're to wed as
soon as he becomes a knight, next year or the year after."
She sounded so like Sansa, so happy and innocent with her dreams. Catelyn smiled, but the smile was
tinged with sadness. The Redforts were an old name in the Vale, she knew, with the blood of the First
Men in their veins. His love she might be, but no Redfort would ever wed a bastard. His family would
arrange a more suitable match for him, to a Corbray or a Waynwood or a Royce, or perhaps a daughter
of some greater house outside the Vale. If Mychel Redfort laid with this girl at all, it would be on the
wrong side of the sheet.
The ascent was easier than Catelyn had dared hope. The trees pressed close, leaning over the path to
make a rustling green roof that shut out even the moon, so it seemed as though they were moving up a
long black tunnel. But the mules were surefooted and tireless, and Mya Stone did indeed seem blessed
with night-eyes. They plodded upward, winding their way back and forth across the face of the mountain
as the steps twisted and turned. A thick layer of fallen needles carpeted the path, so the shoes of their
mules made only the softest sound on the rock. The quiet soothed her, and the gentle rocking motion set
Catelyn to swaying in her saddle. Before long she was fighting sleep.
Perhaps she did doze for a moment, for suddenly a massive ironbound gate was looming before them.
"Stone," Mya announced cheerily, dismounting. Iron spikes were set along the tops of formidable stone
walls, and two fat round towers overtopped the keep. The gate swung open at Mya's shout. Inside, the
portly knight who commanded the waycastle greeted Mya by name and offered them skewers of charred
meat and onions still hot from the spit. Catelyn had not realized how hungry she was. She ate standing in
the yard, as stablehands moved their saddles to fresh mules. The hot juices ran down her chin and
dripped onto her cloak, but she was too famished to care.
Then it was up onto a new mule and out again into the starlight. The second part of the ascent seemed
more treacherous to Catelyn. The trail was steeper, the steps more worn, and here and there littered with
pebbles and broken stone. Mya had to dismount a half-dozen times to move fallen rocks from their path.
"You don't want your mule to break a leg up here," she said. Catelyn was forced to agree. She could feel
the altitude more now. The trees were sparser up here, and the wind blew more vigorously, sharp gusts
that tugged at her clothing
and pushed her hair into her eyes. From time to time the steps doubled back on themselves, and she
could see Stone below them, and the Gates of the Moon farther down, its torches no brighter than
candles.
Snow was smaller than Stone, a single fortified tower and a timber keep and stable hidden behind a low
wall of unmortared rock. Yet it nestled against the Giant's Lance in such a way as to command the entire
stone stair above the lower waycastle. An enemy intent on the Eyrie would have to fight his way from
Stone step by step, while rocks and arrows rained down from Snow above. The commander, an anxious
young knight with a pockmarked face, offered bread and cheese and the chance to warm themselves
before his fire, but Mya declined. "We ought to keep going, my lady," she said. "If it please you." Catelyn


nodded.
Again they were given fresh mules. Hers was white. Mya smiled when she saw him. "Whitey's a good
one, my lady. Sure of foot, even on ice, but you need to be careful. He'll kick if he doesn't like you."
The white mule seemed to like Catelyn; there was no kicking, thank the gods. There was no ice either,
and she was grateful for that as well. "My mother says that hundreds of years ago, this was where the
snow began," Mya told her. "It was always white above here, and the ice never melted." She shrugged. "I
can't remember ever seeing snow this far down the mountain, but maybe it was that way once, in the
olden times."
So young, Catelyn thought, trying to remember if she had ever been like that. The girl had lived half her
life in summer, and that was all she knew. Winter is coming, child, she wanted to tell her. The words
were on her lips; she almost said them. Perhaps she was becoming a Stark at last.
Above Snow, the wind was a living thing, howling around them like a wolf in the waste, then falling off to
nothing as if to lure them into complacency. The stars seemed brighter up here, so close that she could
almost touch them, and the horned moon was huge in the clear black sky. As they climbed, Catelyn
found it was better to look up than down. The steps were cracked and broken from centuries of freeze
and thaw and the tread of countless mules, and even in the dark the heights put her heart in her throat.
When they came to a high saddle between two spires of rock, Mya dismounted. "It's best to lead the
mules over," she said. "The wind can be a little scary here, my lady."
Catelyn climbed stiffly from the shadows and looked at the path ahead; twenty feet long and close to
three feet wide, but with a precipitous drop to either side. She could hear the wind shrieking. Mya
stepped lightly out, her mule following as calmly as if they were crossing
a bailey. It was her turn. Yet no sooner had she taken her first step than fear caught Catelyn in its
jaws. She could feel the emptiness, the vast black gulfs of air that yawned around her. She stopped,
trembling, afraid to move. The wind screamed at her and wrenched at her cloak, trying to pull her over
the edge. Catelyn edged her foot backward, the most timid of steps, but the mule was behind her, and
she could not retreat. I am going to die here, she thought. She could feel cold sweat trickling down her
back.
"Lady Stark," Mya called across the gulf. The girl sounded a thousand leagues away. "Are you well?"
Catelyn Tully Stark swallowed what remained of her pride. "I . . . I cannot do this, child," she called out.
"Yes you can," the bastard girl said. "I know you can. Look how wide the path is."
"I don't want to look." The world seemed to be spinning around her, mountain and sky and mules,
whirling like a child's top. Catelyn closed her eyes to steady her ragged breathing.
"I'll come back for you," Mya said. "Don't move, my lady."
Moving was about the last thing Catelyn was about to do. She listened to the skirling of the wind and the
scuffling sound of leather on stone. Then Mya was there, taking her gently by the arm. "Keep your eyes
closed if you like. Let go of the rope now, Whitey will take care of himself. Very good, my lady. I'll lead
you over, it's easy, you'll see. Give me a step now. That's it, move your foot, just slide it forward. See.


Now another. Easy. You could run across. Another one, go on. Yes." And so, foot by foot, step by
step, the bastard girl led Catelyn across, blind and trembling, while the white mule followed placidly
behind them.
The waycastle called Sky was no more than a high, crescent-shaped wall of unmortared stone raised
against the side of the mountain, but even the topless towers of Valyria could not have looked more
beautiful to Catelyn Stark. Here at last the snow crown began; Sky's weathered stones were rimed with
frost, and long spears of ice hung from the slopes above.
Dawn was breaking in the east as Mya Stone hallooed for the guards, and the gates opened before
them. Inside the walls there was only a series of ramps and a great tumble of boulders and stones of all
sizes. No doubt it would be the easiest thing in the world to begin an avalanche from here. A mouth
yawned in the rock face in front of them. "The stables and barracks are in there," Mya said. "The last part
is inside the mountain. It can be a little dark, but at least you're out of the wind. This is as far as the mules
can go. Past here, well, it's a sort of
chimney, more like a stone ladder than proper steps, but it's not too bad. Another hour and we'll be
there."
Catelyn looked up. Directly overhead, pale in the dawn light, she could see the foundations of the Eyrie.
It could not be more than six hundred feet above them. From below it looked like a small white
honeycomb. She remembered what her uncle had said of baskets and winches. "The Lannisters may
have their pride," she told Mya, "but the Tullys are born with better sense. I have ridden all day and the
best part of a night. Tell them to lower a basket. I shall ride with the turnips."
The sun was well above the mountains by the time Catelyn Stark finally reached the Eyrie. A stocky,
silver-haired man in a sky-blue cloak and hammered moon-and-falcon breastplate helped her from the
basket; Ser Vardis Egen, captain of Jon Arryn's household guard. Beside him stood Maester Colemon,
thin and nervous, with too little hair and too much neck. "Lady Stark," Ser Vardis said, "the pleasure is as
great as it is unanticipated." Maester Colemon bobbed his head in agreement. "Indeed it is, my lady,
indeed it is. I have sent word to your sister. She left orders to be awakened the instant you arrived."
"I hope she had a good night's rest," Catelyn said with a certain bite in her tone that seemed to go
unnoticed.
The men escorted her from the winch room up a spiral stair. The Eyrie was a small castle by the
standards of the great houses; seven slender white towers bunched as tightly as arrows in a quiver on a
shoulder of the great mountain. It had no need of stables nor smithys nor kennels, but Ned said its
granary was as large as Winterfell's, and its towers could house five hundred men. Yet it seemed
strangely deserted to Catelyn as she passed through it, its pale stone halls echoing and empty.
Lysa was waiting alone in her solar, still clad in her bed robes. Her long auburn hair tumbled unbound
across bare white shoulders and down her back. A maid stood behind her, brushing out the night's
tangles, but when Catelyn entered, her sister rose to her feet, smiling. "Cat," she said. "Oh, Cat, how
good it is to see you. My sweet sister." She ran across the chamber and wrapped her sister in her arms.
"How long it has been," Lysa murmured against her. "Oh, how very very long."
It had been five years, in truth; five cruel years, for Lysa. They had taken their toll. Her sister was two
years the younger, yet she looked older now. Shorter than Catelyn, Lysa had grown thick of body, pale


and puffy of face. She had the blue eyes of the Tullys, but hers were pale and watery, never still. Her
small mouth had turned petulant. As
Catelyn held her, she remembered the slender, high-breasted girl who'd waited beside her that day in the
sept at Riverrun. How lovely and full of hope she had been. All that remained of her sister's beauty was
the great fall of thick auburn hair that cascaded to her waist.
"You look well," Catelyn lied, "but . . . tired."
Her sister broke the embrace. "Tired. Yes. Oh, yes." She seemed to notice the others then; her maid,
Maester Colemon, Ser Vardis. "Leave us," she told them. "I wish to speak to my sister alone." She held
Catelyn's hand as they withdrew . . .
. . . and dropped it the instant the door closed. Catelyn saw her face change. It was as if the sun had
gone behind a cloud. "Have you taken leave of your senses?" Lysa snapped at her. "To bring him here,
without a word of permission, without so much as a warning, to drag us into your quarrels with the
Lannisters . . ."
"My quarrels?" Catelyn could scarce believe what she was hearing. A great fire burned in the hearth, but
there was no trace of warmth in Lysa's voice. "They were your quarrels first, sister. It was you who sent
me that cursed letter, you who wrote that the Lannisters had murdered your husband."
"To warn you, so you could stay away from them! I never meant to fight them! Gods, Cat, do you know
what you've done?"
"Mother?" a small voice said. Lysa whirled, her heavy robe swirling around her. Robert Arryn, Lord of
the Eyrie, stood in the doorway, clutching a ragged cloth doll and looking at them with large eyes. He
was a painfully thin child, small for his age and sickly all his days, and from time to time he trembled. The
shaking sickness, the maesters called it. "I heard voices."
Small wonder, Catelyn thought; Lysa had almost been shouting. Still, her sister looked daggers at her.
"This is your aunt Catelyn, baby. My sister, Lady Stark. Do you remember?"
The boy glanced at her blankly. "I think so," he said, blinking, though he had been less than a year old
the last time Catelyn had seen him.
Lysa seated herself near the fire and said, "Come to Mother, my sweet one." She straightened his
bedclothes and fussed with his fine brown hair. "Isn't he beautiful? And strong too, don't you believe the
things you hear. Jon knew. The seed is strong, he told me. His last words. He kept saying Robert's name,
and he grabbed my arm so hard he left marks. Tell them, the seed is strong. His seed. He wanted
everyone to know what a good strong boy my baby was going to be."
"Lysa," Catelyn said, "if you're right about the Lannisters, all the more reason we must act quickly. We-"
"Not in front of the baby," Lysa said. "He has a delicate temper, don't you, sweet one?"
"The boy is Lord of the Eyrie and Defender of the Vale," Catelyn reminded her, "and these are no times


for delicacy. Ned thinks it may come to war."
"Quiet!" Lysa snapped at her. "You're scaring the boy." Little Robert took a quick peek over his
shoulder at Catelyn and began to tremble. His doll fell to the rushes, and he pressed himself against his
mother. "Don't be afraid, my sweet baby," Lysa whispered. "Mother's here, nothing will hurt you." She
opened her robe and drew out a pale, heavy breast, tipped with red. The boy grabbed for it eagerly,
buried his face against her chest, and began to suck. Lysa stroked his hair.
Catelyn was at a loss for words. Jon Anyn's son, she thought incredulously. She remembered her own
baby, three-year-old Rickon, half the age of this boy and five times as fierce. Small wonder the lords of
the Vale were restive. For the first time she understood why the king had tried to take the child away
from his mother to foster with the Lannisters . . .
"We're safe here," Lysa was saying. Whether to her or to the boy, Catelyn was not sure.
"Don't be a fool," Catelyn said, the anger rising in her. "No one is safe. If you think hiding here will make
the Lannisters forget you, you are sadly mistaken."
Lysa covered her boy's ear with her hand. "Even if they could bring an army through the mountains and
past the Bloody Gate, the Eyrie is impregnable. You saw for yourself. No enemy could ever reach us up
here."
Catelyn wanted to slap her. Uncle Brynden had tried to warn her, she realized. "No castle is
impregnable."
"This one is," Lysa insisted. "Everyone says so. The only thing is, what am I to do with this Imp you have
brought me?"
"Is he a bad man?" the Lord of the Eyrie asked, his mother's breast popping from his mouth, the nipple
wet and red.
"A very bad man," Lysa told him as she covered herself, "but Mother won't let him harm my little baby."
"Make him fly," Robert said eagerly.
Lysa stroked her son's hair. "Perhaps we will," she murmured. "Perhaps that is just what we will do."
EDDARD
He found Littlefinger in the brothel's common room, chatting amiably with a tall, elegant woman who
wore a feathered gown over skin as black as ink. By the hearth, Heward and a buxom wench were
playing at forfeits. From the look of it, he'd lost his belt, his cloak, his mail shirt, and his right boot so far,
while the girl had been forced to unbutton her shift to the waist. Jory Cassel stood beside a rain-streaked
window with a wry smile on his face, watching Heward turn over tiles and enjoying the view.


Ned paused at the foot of the stair and pulled on his gloves. "It's time we took our leave. My business
here is done."
Heward lurched to his feet, hurriedly gathering up his things. "As you will, my lord," Jory said. "I'll help
Wyl bring round the horses." He strode to the door.
Littlefinger took his time saying his farewells. He kissed the black woman's hand, whispered some joke
that made her laugh aloud, and sauntered over to Ned. "Your business," he said lightly, "or Robert's?
They say the Hand dreams the king's dreams, speaks with the king's voice, and rules with the king's
sword. Does that also mean you fuck with the king's-"
"Lord Baelish," Ned interrupted, "you presume too much. I am not ungrateful for your help. It might have
taken us years to find this
brothel without you. That does not mean I intend to endure your mockery. And I am no longer the
King's Hand."
"The direwolf must be a prickly beast," said Littlefinger with a sharp twist of his mouth.
A warm rain was pelting down from a starless black sky as they walked to the stables. Ned drew up the
hood of his cloak. Jory brought out his horse. Young Wyl came right behind him, leading Littlefinger's
mare with one hand while the other fumbled with his belt and the lacings of his trousers. A barefoot
whore leaned out of the stable door, giggling at him.
"Will we be going back to the castle now, my lord?" Jory asked. Ned nodded and swung into the
saddle. Littlefinger mounted up beside him. Jory and the others followed.
"Chataya runs a choice establishment," Littlefinger said as they rode. "I've half a mind to buy it. Brothels
are a much sounder investment than ships, I've found. Whores seldom sink, and when they are boarded
by pirates, why, the pirates pay good coin like everyone else." Lord Petyr chuckled at his own wit.
Ned let him prattle on. After a time, he quieted and they rode in silence. The streets of King's Landing
were dark and deserted. The rain had driven everyone under their roofs. It beat down on Ned's head,
warm as blood and relentless as old guilts. Fat drops of water ran down his face.
"Robert will never keep to one bed," Lyanna had told him at Winterfell, on the night long ago when their
father had promised her hand to the young Lord of Storm's End. "I hear he has gotten a child on some
girl in the Vale." Ned had held the babe in his arms; he could scarcely deny her, nor would he lie to his
sister, but he had assured her that what Robert did before their betrothal was of no matter, that he was a
good man and true who would love her with all his heart. Lyanna had only smiled. "Love is sweet,
dearest Ned, but it cannot change a man's nature."
The girl had been so young Ned had not dared to ask her age. No doubt she'd been a virgin; the better
brothels could always find a virgin, if the purse was fat enough. She had light red hair and a powdering of
freckles across the bridge of her nose, and when she slipped free a breast to give her nipple to the babe,
he saw that her bosom was freckled as well. "I named her Barra," she said as the child nursed. "She
looks so like him, does she not, milord? She has his nose, and his hair . . ."
"She does." Eddard Stark had touched the baby's fine, dark hair. It


flowed through his fingers like black silk. Robert's firstborn had had the same fine hair, he seemed to
recall.
"Tell him that when you see him, milord, as it ... as it please you. Tell him how beautiful she is."
"I will," Ned had promised her. That was his curse. Robert would swear undying love and forget them
before evenfall, but Ned Stark kept his vows. He thought of the promises he'd made Lyanna as she lay
dying, and the price he'd paid to keep them.
"And tell him I've not been with no one else. I swear it, milord, by the old gods and new. Chataya said I
could have half a year, for the baby, and for hoping he'd come back. So you'll tell him I'm waiting, won't
you? I don't want no jewels or nothing, just him. He was always good to me, truly."
Good to you, Ned thought hollowly. "I will tell him, child, and I promise you, Barra shall not go
wanting."
She had smiled then, a smile so tremulous and sweet that it cut the heart out of him. Riding through the
rainy night, Ned saw Jon Snow's face in front of him, so like a younger version of his own. If the gods
frowned so on bastards, he thought dully, why did they fill men with such lusts? "Lord Baelish, what do
you know of Robert's bastards?"
"Well, he has more than you, for a start."
"How many?"
Littlefinger shrugged. Rivulets of moisture twisted down the back of his cloak. "Does it matter? If you
bed enough women, some will give you presents, and His Grace has never been shy on that count. I
know he's acknowledged that boy at Storm's End, the one he fathered the night Lord Stannis wed. He
could hardly do otherwise. The mother was a Florent, niece to the Lady Selyse, one of her bedmaids.
Renly says that Robert carried the girl upstairs during the feast, and broke in the wedding bed while
Stannis and his bride were still dancing. Lord Stannis seemed to think that was a blot on the honor of his
wife's House, so when the boy was born, he shipped him off to Renly." He gave Ned a sideways glance.
"I've also heard whispers that Robert got a pair of twins on a serving wench at Casterly Rock, three
years ago when he went west for Lord Tywin's tourney. Cersei had the babes killed, and sold the mother
to a passing slaver. Too much an affront to Lannister pride, that close to home."
Ned Stark grimaced. Ugly tales like that were told of every great lord in the realm. He could believe it of
Cersei Lannister readily enough . . . but would the king stand by and let it happen? The Robert he had
known would not have, but the Robert he had known had never been so practiced at shutting his eyes to
things he did not
wish to see. "Why would Jon Arryn take a sudden interest in the king's baseborn children?"
The short man gave a sodden shrug. "He was the King's Hand. Doubtless Robert asked him to see that
they were provided for."


Ned was soaked through to the bone, and his soul had grown cold. "It had to be more than that, or why
kill him?"
Littlefinger shook the rain from his hair and laughed. "Now I see. Lord Arryn learned that His Grace had
filled the bellies of some whores and fishwives, and for that he had to be silenced. Small wonder. Allow a
man like that to live, and next he's like to blurt out that the sun rises in the east."
There was no answer Ned Stark could give to that but a frown. For the first time in years, he found
himself remembering Rhaegar Targaryen. He wondered if Rhaegar had frequented brothels; somehow he
thought not.
The rain was falling harder now, stinging the eyes and drumming against the ground. Rivers of black
water were running down the hill when Jory called out, "My lord, " his voice hoarse with alarm. And in an
instant, the street was full of soldiers.
Ned glimpsed ringmail over leather, gauntlets and greaves, steel helms with golden lions on the crests.
Their cloaks clung to their backs, sodden with rain. He had no time to count, but there were ten at least,
a line of them, on foot, blocking the street, with longswords and irontipped spears. "Behind!" he heard
Wyl cry, and when he turned his horse, there were more in back of them, cutting off their retreat. Jory's
sword came singing from its scabbard. "Make way or die!"
"The wolves are howling," their leader said. Ned could see rain running down his face. "Such a small
pack, though."
Littlefinger walked his horse forward, step by careful step. "What is the meaning of this? This is the Hand
of the King."
"He was the Hand of the King." The mud muffled the hooves of the blood bay stallion. The line parted
before him. On a golden breastplate, the lion of Lannister roared its defiance. "Now, if truth be told, I'm
not sure what he is."
"Lannister, this is madness," Littlefinger said. "Let us pass. We are expected back at the castle. What do
you think you're doing?"
"He knows what he's doing," Ned said calmly.
Jaime Lannister smiled. "Quite true. I'm looking for my brother. You remember my brother, don't you,
Lord Stark? He was with us at Winterfell. Fair-haired, mismatched eyes, sharp of tongue. A short man."
"I remember him well," Ned replied.
"It would seem he has met some trouble on the road. My lord father is quite vexed. You would not
perchance have any notion of who might have wished my brother ill, would you?"
"Your brother has been taken at my command, to answer for his crimes," Ned Stark said.
Littlefinger groaned in dismay. "My lords-"
Ser Jaime ripped his longsword from its sheath and urged his stallion forward. "Show me your steel,


Lord Eddard. I'll butcher you like Aerys if I must, but I'd sooner you died with a blade in your hand." He
gave Littlefinger a cool, contemptuous glance. "Lord Baelish, I'd leave here in some haste if I did not care
to get bloodstains on my costly clothing."
Littlefinger did not need to be urged. "I will bring the City Watch," he promised Ned. The Lannister line
parted to let him through, and closed behind him. Littlefinger put his heels to his mare and vanished
around a corner.
Ned's men had drawn their swords, but they were three against twenty. Eyes watched from nearby
windows and doors, but no one was about to intervene. His party was mounted, the Lannisters on foot
save for Jaime himself. A charge might win them free, but it seemed to Eddard Stark that they had a
surer, safer tactic. "Kill me," he warned the Kingslayer, "and Catelyn will most certainly slay Tyrion."
Jaime Lannister poked at Ned's chest with the gilded sword that had sipped the blood of the last of the
Dragonkings. "Would she? The noble Catelyn Tully of Riverrun murder a hostage? I think . . . not." He
sighed. "But I am not willing to chance my brother's life on a woman's honor." Jaime slid the golden
sword into its sheath. "So I suppose I'll let you run back to Robert to tell him how I frightened you. I
wonder if he'll care." Jaime pushed his wet hair back with his fingers and wheeled his horse around.
When he was beyond the line of swordsmen, he glanced back at his captain. "Tregar, see that no harm
comes to Lord Stark."
"As you say, m'lord."
"Still . . . we wouldn't want him to leave here entirely unchastened, so"-through the night and the rain, he
glimpsed the white of Jaime's smile-"kill his men."
"No!" Ned Stark screamed, clawing for his sword. Jaime was already cantering off down the street as
he heard Wyl shout. Men closed from both sides. Ned rode one down, cutting at phantoms in red cloaks
who gave way before him. Jory Cassel put his heels into his mount and charged. A steel-shod hoof
caught a Lannister guardsman in the face with a sickening crunch. A second man reeled away and for an
instant
Jory was free. Wyl cursed as they pulled him off his dying horse, swords slashing in the rain. Ned
galloped to him, bringing his longsword down on Tregar's helm. The jolt of impact made him grit his
teeth. Tregar stumbled to his knees, his lion crest sheared in half, blood running down his face. Heward
was hacking at the hands that had seized his bridle when a spear caught him in the belly. Suddenly Jory
was back among them, a red rain flying from his sword. "No!" Ned shouted. "Jory, away!" Ned's horse
slipped under him and came crashing down in the mud. There was a moment of blinding pain and the
taste of blood in his mouth.
He saw them cut the legs from Jory's mount and drag him to the earth, swords rising and failing as they
closed in around him. When Ned's horse lurched back to its feet, he tried to rise, only to fall again,
choking on his scream. He could see the splintered bone poking through his calf. It was the last thing he
saw for a time. The rain came down and down and down.
When he opened his eyes again, Lord Eddard Stark was alone with his dead. His horse moved closer,
caught the rank scent of blood, and galloped away. Ned began to drag himself through the mud, gritting
his teeth at the agony in his leg. It seemed to take years. Faces watched from candlelit windows, and
people began to emerge from alleys and doors, but no one moved to help.


Littlefinger and the City Watch found him there in the street, cradling Jory Cassel's body in his arms.
Somewhere the gold cloaks found a litter, but the trip back to the castle was a blur of agony, and Ned
lost consciousness more than once. He remembered seeing the Red Keep looming ahead of him in the
first grey light of dawn. The rain had darkened the pale pink stone of the massive walls to the color of
blood.
Then Grand Maester Pycelle was looming over him, holding a cup, whispering, "Drink, my lord. Here.
The milk of the poppy, for your pain." He remembered swallowing, and Pycelle was telling someone to
heat the wine to boiling and fetch him clean silk, and that was the last he knew.
DAENERYS
The Horse Gate of Vaes Dothrak was made of two gigantic bronze stallions, rearing, their hooves
meeting a hundred feet above the roadway to form a pointed arch.
Dany could not have said why the city needed a gate when it had no walls . . . and no buildings that she
could see. Yet there it stood, immense and beautiful, the great horses framing the distant purple mountain
beyond. The bronze stallions threw long shadows across the waving grasses as Khal Drogo led the
khalasar under their hooves and down the godsway, his bloodriders beside him.
Dany followed on her silver, escorted by Ser Jorah Mormont and her brother Viserys, mounted once
more. After the day in the grass when she had left him to walk back to the khalasar, the Dothraki had
laughingly called him Khal Rhae Mhar, the Sorefoot King. Khal Drogo had offered him a place in a cart
the next day, and Viserys had accepted. In his stubborn ignorance, he had not even known he was being
mocked; the carts were for eunuchs, cripples, women giving birth, the very young and the very old. That
won him yet another name: Khal Rhaggat, the Cart King. Her brother had thought it was the khal's way
of apologizing for the wrong Dany had done him. She had begged Ser Jorah not to tell him the truth, lest
he be shamed. The knight had replied that the king could well do with a bit of shame . . . yet he had done
as she bid. It had taken much pleading, and all the
pillow tricks Doreah had taught her, before Dany had been able to make Drogo relent and allow Viserys
to rejoin them at the head of the column.
"Where is the city?" she asked as they passed beneath the bronze arch. There were no buildings to be
seen, no people, only the grass and the road, lined with ancient monuments from all the lands the
Dothraki had sacked over the centuries.
"Ahead," Ser Jorah answered. "Under the mountain."
Beyond the horse gate, plundered gods and stolen heroes loomed to either side of them. The forgotten
deities of dead cities brandished their broken thunderbolts at the sky as Dany rode her silver past their
feet. Stone kings looked down on her from their thrones, their faces chipped and stained, even their
names lost in the mists of time. Lithe young maidens danced on marble plinths, draped only in flowers, or
poured air from shattered jars. Monsters stood in the grass beside the road; black iron dragons with
jewels for eyes, roaring griffins, manticores with their barbed tails poised to strike, and other beasts she


could not name. Some of the statues were so lovely they took her breath away, others so misshapen and
terrible that Dany could scarcely bear to look at them. Those, Ser Jorah said, had likely come from the
Shadow Lands beyond Asshai.
"So many," she said as her silver stepped slowly onward, "and from so many lands."
Viserys was less impressed. "The trash of dead cities," he sneered. He was careful to speak in the
Common Tongue, which few Dothraki could understand, yet even so Dany found herself glancing back
at the men of her khas, to make certain he had not been overheard. He went on blithely. "All these
savages know how to do is steal the things better men have built . . . and kill." He laughed. "They do
know how to kill. Otherwise I'd have no use for them at all."
"They are my people now," Dany said. "You should not call them savages, brother."
"The dragon speaks as he likes," Viserys said . . . in the Common Tongue. He glanced over his shoulder
at Aggo and Rakharo, riding behind them, and favored them with a mocking smile. "See, the savages
lack the wit to understand the speech of civilized men." A mosseaten stone monolith loomed over the
road, fifty feet tall. Viserys gazed at it with boredom in his eyes. "How long must we linger amidst these
ruins before Drogo gives me my army? I grow tired of waiting."
"The princess must be presented to the dosh khaleen . . ."
"The crones, yes," her brother interrupted, "and there's to be some mummer's show of a prophecy for
the whelp in her belly, you told me.
What is that to me? I'm tired of eating horsemeat and I'm sick of the stink of these savages." He sniffed
at the wide, floppy sleeve of his tunic, where it was his custom to keep a sachet. It could not have helped
much. The tunic was filthy. All the silk and heavy wools that Viserys had worn out of Pentos were stained
by hard travel and rotted from sweat.
Ser Jorah Mormont said, "The Western Market will have food more to your taste, Your Grace. The
traders from the Free Cities come there to sell their wares. The khal will honor his promise in his own
time."
"He had better," Viserys said grimly. "I was promised a crown, and I mean to have it. The dragon is not
mocked." Spying an obscene likeness of a woman with six breasts and a ferret's head, he rode off to
inspect it more closely.
Dany was relieved, yet no less anxious. "I pray that my sun-andstars will not keep him waiting too long,"
she told Ser Jorah when her brother was out of earshot.
The knight looked after Viserys doubtfully. "Your brother should have bided his time in Pentos. There is
no place for him in a khalasar. Illyrio tried to warn him."
"He will go as soon as he has his ten thousand. My lord husband promised a golden crown."
Ser Jorah grunted. "Yes, Khaleesi, but . . . the Dothraki look on these things differently than we do in the
west. I have told him as much, as Illyrio told him, but your brother does not listen. The horselords are no
traders. Viserys thinks he sold you, and now he wants his price. Yet Khal Drogo would say he had you


as a gift. He will give Viserys a gift in return, yes . . . in his own time. You do not demand a gift, not of a
khaL You do not demand anything of a khal."
"It is not right to make him wait." Dany did not know why she was defending her brother, yet she was.
"Viserys says he could sweep the Seven Kingdoms with ten thousand Dothraki screamers."
Ser Jorah snorted. "Viserys could not sweep a stable with ten thousand brooms."
Dany could not pretend to surprise at the disdain in his tone. "What . . . what if it were not Viserys?" she
asked. "If it were someone else who led them? Someone stronger? Could the Dothraki truly conquer the
Seven Kingdoms?"
Ser Jorah's face grew thoughtful as their horses trod together down the godsway. "When I first went into
exile, I looked at the Dothraki and saw half-naked barbarians, as wild as their horses. If you had asked
me then, Princess, I should have told you that a thousand good
knights would have no trouble putting to flight a hundred times as many Dothraki."
"But if I asked you now?"
"Now," the knight said, "I am less certain. They are better riders than any knight, utterly fearless, and
their bows outrange ours. In the Seven Kingdoms, most archers fight on foot, from behind a shieldwall or
a barricade of sharpened stakes. The Dothraki fire from horseback, charging or retreating, it makes no
matter, they are full as deadly . . . and there are so many of them, my lady. Your lord husband alone
counts forty thousand mounted warriors in his khalasar."
"Is that truly so many?"
"Your brother Rhaegar brought as many men to the Trident," Ser Jorah admitted, "but of that number,
no more than a tenth were knights. The rest were archers, freeriders, and foot soldiers armed with spears
and pikes. When Rhaegar fell, many threw down their weapons and fled the field. How long do you
imagine such a rabble would stand against the charge of forty thousand screamers howling for blood?
How well would boiled leather jerkins and mailed shirts protect them when the arrows fall like rain?"
"Not long," she said, "not well."
He nodded. "Mind you, Princess, if the lords of the Seven Kingdoms have the wit the gods gave a
goose, it will never come to that. The riders have no taste for siegecraft. I doubt they could take even the
weakest castle in the Seven Kingdoms, but if Robert Baratheon were fool enough to give them battle . .
."
"Is he?" Dany asked. "A fool, I mean?"
Ser Jorah considered that for a moment. "Robert should have been born Dothraki," he said at last.
"Your khal would tell you that only a coward hides behind stone walls instead of facing his enemy with a
blade in hand. The Usurper would agree. He is a strong man, brave . . . and rash enough to meet a
Dothraki horde in the open field. But the men around him, well, their pipers play a different tune. His
brother Stannis, Lord Tywin Lannister, Eddard Stark He spat.


"You hate this Lord Stark," Dany said.
"He took from me all I loved, for the sake of a few lice-ridden poachers and his precious honor," Ser
Jorah said bitterly. From his tone, she could tell the loss still pained him. He changed the subject quickly.
"There," he announced, pointing. "Vaes Dothrak. The city of the horselords."
Khal Drogo and his bloodriders led them through the great bazaar of the Western Market, down the
broad ways beyond. Dany followed close on her silver, staring at the strangeness about her. Vaes
Dothrak
was at once the largest city and the smallest that she had ever known. She tho ' ught it must be ten times
as large as Pentos, a vastness without walls or limits, its broad windswept streets paved in grass and mud
and carpeted with wildflowers. In the Free Cities of the west, towers and manses and hovels and bridges
and shops and halls all crowded in on one another, but Vaes Dothrak sprawled languorously, baking in
the warm sun, ancient, arrogant, and empty.
Even the buildings were so queer to her eyes. She saw carved stone pavilions, manses of woven grass
as large as castles, rickety wooden towers, stepped pyramids faced with marble, log halls open to the
sky. In place of walls, some palaces were surrounded by thorny hedges. "None of them are alike," she
said.
"Your brother had part of the truth," Ser Jorah admitted. "The Dothraki do not build. A thousand years
ago, to make a house, they would dig a hole in the earth and cover it with a woven grass roof. The
buildings you see were made by slaves brought here from lands they've plundered, and they built each
after the fashion of their own peoples."
Most of the halls, even the largest, seemed deserted. "Where are the people who live here?" Dany
asked. The bazaar had been full of running children and men shouting, but elsewhere she had seen only a
few eunuchs going about their business.
"Only the crones of the dosh khaleen dwell permanently in the sacred city, them and their slaves and
servants," Ser Jorah replied, "yet Vaes Dothrak is large enough to house every man of every khalasar,
should all the khals return to the Mother at once. The crones have prophesied that one day that will come
to pass, and so Vaes Dothrak must be ready to embrace all its children."
Khal Drogo finally called a halt near the Eastern Market where the caravans from Yi Ti and Asshai and
the Shadow Lands came to trade, with the Mother of Mountains looming overhead. Dany smiled as she
recalled Magister Illyrio's slave girl and her talk of a palace with two hundred rooms and doors of solid
silver. The "palace" was a cavernous wooden feasting hall, its rough-hewn timbered walls rising forty feet,
its roof sewn silk, a vast billowing tent that could be raised to keep out the rare rains, or lowered to admit
the endless sky. Around the hall were broad grassy horse yards fenced with high hedges, firepits, and
hundreds of round earthen houses that bulged from the ground like miniature hills, covered with grass.
A small army of slaves had gone ahead to prepare for Khal Drogo's arrival. As each rider swung down
from his saddle, he unbelted his arakh and handed it to a waiting slave, and any other weapons he carried
as well. Even Khal Drogo himself was not exempt. Ser Jorah
344 GEORGE R.R. MARUN


had explained that it was forbidden to carry a blade in Vaes Dothrak, or to shed a free man's blood.
Even warring khalasars put aside their feuds and shared meat and mead together when they were in sight
of the Mother of Mountains. In this place, the crones of the dosh khaleen had decreed, all Dothraki were
one blood, one khalasar, one herd.
Cohollo came to Dany as Irri and Jhiqui were helping her down off her silver. He was the oldest of
Drogo's three bloodriders, a squat bald man with a crooked nose and a mouth full of broken teeth,
shattered by a mace twenty years before when he saved the young khalakka from sellswords who hoped
to sell him to his father's enemies. His life had been bound to Drogo's the day her lord husband was born.
Every khal had his bloodriders. At first Dany had thought of them as a kind of Dothraki Kingsguard,
sworn to protect their lord, but it went further than that. Jhiqui had taught her that a bloodrider was more
than a guard; they were the khal's brothers, his shadows, his fiercest friends. "Blood of my blood," Drogo
called them, and so it was; they shared a single life. The ancient traditions of the horselords demanded
that when the khal died, his bloodriders died with him, to ride at his side in the night lands. If the khal died
at the hands of some enemy, they lived only long enough to avenge him, and then followed him joyfully
into the grave. In some khalasars, Jhiqui said, the bloodriders shared the khal's wine, his tent, and even
his wives, though never his horses. A man's mount was his own.
Daenerys was glad that Khal Drogo did not hold to those ancient ways. She should not have liked being
shared. And while old Cohollo treated her kindly enough, the others frightened her; Haggo, huge and
silent, often glowered as if he had forgotten who she was, and Qotho had cruel eyes and quick hands that
liked to hurt. He left bruises on Doreah's soft white skin whenever he touched her, and sometimes made
Irri sob in the night. Even his horses seemed to fear him.
Yet they were bound to Drogo for life and death, so Daenerys had no choice but to accept them. And
sometimes she found herself wishing her father had been protected by such men. In the songs, the white
knights of the Kingsguard were ever noble, valiant, and true, and yet King Aerys had been murdered by
one of them, the handsome boy they now called the Kingslayer, and a second, Ser Barristan the Bold,
had gone over to the Usurper. She wondered if all men were as false in the Seven Kingdoms. When her
son sat the Iron Throne, she would see that he had bloodriders of his own to protect him against
treachery in his Kingsguard.
"Khaleesi, " Cohollo said to her, in Dothraki. "Drogo, who is blood
of my blood, commands me to tell you that he must ascend the Mother of Mountains this night, to
sacrifice to the gods for his safe return."
Only men were allowed to set foot on the Mother, Dany knew. The khal's bloodriders would go with
him, and return at dawn. "Tell my sun-and-stars that I dream of him, and wait anxious for his return," she
replied, thankful. Dany tired more easily as the child grew within her; in truth, a night of rest would be
most welcome. Her pregnancy only seemed to have inflamed Drogo's desire for her, and of late his
embraces left her exhausted.
Doreah led her to the hollow hill that had been prepared for her and her khaL It was cool and dim
within, like a tent made of earth. "Jhiqui, a bath, please," she commanded, to wash the dust of travel from
her skin and soak her weary bones. It was pleasant to know that they would linger here for a while, that
she would not need to climb back on her silver on the morrow.


The water was scalding hot, as she liked it. "I will give my brother his gifts tonight," she decided as Jhiqui
was washing her hair. "He should look a king in the sacred city. Doreah, run and find him and invite him
to sup with me." Viserys was nicer to the Lysene girl than to her Dothraki handmaids, perhaps because
Magister Illyrio had let him bed her back in Pentos. "Irri, go to the bazaar and buy fruit and meat.
Anything but horseflesh."
"Horse is best," Irri said. "Horse makes a man strong."
"Viserys hates horsemeat."
"As you say, Khaleesi. "
She brought back a haunch of goat and a basket of fruits and vegetables. Jhiqui roasted the meat with
sweetgrass and firepods, basting it with honey as it cooked, and there were melons and pomegranates
and plums and some queer eastern fruit Dany did not know. While her handmaids prepared the meal,
Dany laid out the clothing she'd had made to her brother's measure: a tunic and leggings of crisp white
linen, leather sandals that laced up to the knee, a bronze medallion belt, a leather vest painted with
fire-breathing dragons. The Dothraki would respect him more if he looked less a beggar, she hoped, and
perhaps he would forgive her for shaming him that day in the grass. He was still her king, after all, and her
brother. They were both blood of the dragon.
She was arranging the last of his gifts-a sandsilk cloak, green as grass, with a pale grey border that
would bring out the silver in his hair-when Viserys arrived, dragging Doreah by the arm. Her eye was red
where he'd hit her. "How dare you send this whore to give me commands," he said. He shoved the
handmaid roughly to the carpet.
The anger took Dany utterly by surprise. "I only wanted ... Doreah, what did you say?"
"Khaleesi, pardons, forgive me. I went to him, as you bid, and told him you commanded him to join you
for supper."
"No one commands the dragon," Viserys snarled. "I am your king! I should have sent you back her
head!"
The Lysene girl quailed, but Dany calmed her with a touch. "Don't be afraid, he won't hurt you. Sweet
brother, please, forgive her, the girl misspoke herself, I told her to ask you to sup with me, if it pleases
Your Grace." She took him by the hand and drew him across the room. "Look. These are for you."
Viserys frowned suspiciously. "What is all this?"
"New raiment. I had it made for you." Dany smiled shyly.
He looked at her and sneered. "Dothraki rags. Do you presume to dress me now?"
"Please . . . you'll be cooler and more comfortable, and I thought . . . maybe if you dressed like them,
the Dothraki Dany did not know how to say it without waking his dragon.
"Next you'll want to braid my hair."


"I'd never . . ." Why was he always so cruel? She had only wanted to help. "You have no right to a
braid, you have won no victories yet."
It was the wrong thing to say. Fury shone from his lilac eyes, yet he dared not strike her, not with her
handmaids watching and the warriors of her khas outside. Viserys picked up the cloak and sniffed at it.
"This stinks of manure. Perhaps I shall use it as a horse blanket."
"I had Doreah sew it specially for you," she told him, wounded. "These are garments fit for a khaL "
"I am the Lord of the Seven Kingdoms, not some grass-stained savage with bells in his hair," Viserys
spat back at her. He grabbed her arm. "You forget yourself, slut. Do you think that big belly will protect
you if you wake the dragon?"
His fingers dug into her arm painfully and for an instant Dany felt like a child again, quailing in the face of
his rage. She reached out with her other hand and grabbed the first thing she touched, the belt she'd
hoped to give him, a heavy chain of ornate bronze medallions. She swung it with all her strength.
It caught him full in the face. Viserys let go of her. Blood ran down his cheek where the edge of one of
the medallions had sliced it open. "You are the one who forgets himself," Dany said to him. "Didn't you
learn anything that day in the grass? Leave me now, before I summon my khas to drag you out. And pray
that Khal Drogo does not hear of this, or he will cut open your belly and feed you your own entrails."
Viserys scrambled back to his feet. "When I come into my kingdom, you will rue this day, slut." He
walked off, holding his torn face, leaving her gifts behind him.
Drops Of his blood had spattered the beautiful sandsilk cloak. Dany clutched the soft cloth to her cheek
and sat cross-legged on her sleeping mats.
"Your supper is ready, Khaleesi," Jhiqui announced.
"I'm not hungry," Dany said sadly. She was suddenly very tired. "Share the food among yourselves, and
send some to Ser Jorah, if you would." After a moment she added, "Please, bring me one of the dragon's
eggs."
Irri fetched the egg with the deep green shell, bronze flecks shining amid its scales as she turned it in her
small hands. Dany curled up on her side, pulling the sandsilk cloak across her and cradling the egg in the
hollow between her swollen belly and small, tender breasts. She liked to hold them. They were so
beautiful, and sometimes just being close to them made her feel stronger, braver, as if somehow she were
drawing strength from the stone dragons locked inside.
She was lying there, holding the egg, when she felt the child move within her . . . as if he were reaching
out, brother to brother, blood to blood. "You are the dragon," Dany whispered to him, "the true dragon.
I know it. I know it." And she smiled, and went to sleep dreaming of home.
BRAN
A light snow was falling. Bran could feel the flakes on his face, melting as they touched his skin like the


gentlest of rains. He sat straight atop his horse, watching as the iron portcullis was winched upward. Try
as he might to keep calm, his heart was fluttering in his chest.
"Are you ready?" Robb asked.
Bran nodded, trying not to let his fear show. He had not been outside Winterfell since his fall, but he was
determined to ride out as proud as any knight.
"Let's ride, then." Robb put his heels into his big grey-and-white gelding, and the horse walked under the
portcullis.
"Go," Bran whispered to his own horse. He touched her neck lightly, and the small chestnut filly started
forward. Bran had named her Dancer. She was two years old, and Joseth said she was smarter than any
horse had a right to be. They had trained her special, to respond to rein and voice and touch. Up to now,
Bran had only ridden her around the yard. At first Joseth or Hodor would lead her, while Bran sat
strapped to her back in the oversize saddle the Imp had drawn up for him, but for the past fortnight he
had been riding her on his own, trotting her round and round, and growing bolder with every circuit.
They passed beneath the gatehouse, over the drawbridge, through
the outer walls. Summer and Grey Wind came loping beside them, sniffing at the wind. Close behind
came Theon Greyjoy, with his longbow and a quiver of broadheads; he had a mind to take a deer, he
had told them. He was followed by four guardsmen in mailed shirts and coifs, and Joseth, a stick-thin
stableman whom Robb had named master of horse while Hullen was away. Maester Luwin brought up
the rear, riding on a donkey. Bran would have liked it better if he and Robb had gone off alone, just the
two of them, but Hal Mollen would not hear of it, and Maester Luwin backed him. If Bran fell off his
horse or injured himself, the maester was determined to be with him.
Beyond the castle lay the market square, its wooden stalls deserted now. They rode down the muddy
streets of the village, past rows of small neat houses of log and undressed stone. Less than one in five
were occupied, thin tendrils of woodsmoke curling up from their chimneys. The rest would fill up one by
one as it grew colder. When the snow fell and the ice winds howled down out of the north, Old Nan
said, farmers left their frozen fields and distant holdfasts, loaded up their wagons, and then the winter
town came alive. Bran had never seen it happen, but Maester Luwin said the day was looming closer.
The end of the long summer was near at hand. Winter is coming.
A few villagers eyed the direwolves anxiously as the riders went past, and one man dropped the wood
he was carrying as he shrank away in fear, but most of the townfolk had grown used to the sight. They
bent the knee when they saw the boys, and Robb greeted each of them with a lordly nod.
With his legs unable to grip, the swaying motion of the horse made Bran feel unsteady at first, but the
huge saddle with its thick horn and high back cradled him comfortingly, and the straps around his chest
and thighs would not allow him to fall. After a time the rhythm began to feel almost natural. His anxiety
faded, and a tremulous smile crept across his face.
Two serving wenches stood beneath the sign of the Smoking Log, the local alehouse. When Theon
Greyjoy called out to them, the younger girl turned red and covered her face. Theon spurred his mount to
move up beside Robb. "Sweet Kyra," he said with a laugh. "She squirms like a weasel in bed, but say a
word to her on the street, and she blushes pink as a maid. Did I ever tell you about the night that she and


Bessa-"
"Not where my brother can hear, Theon," Robb warned him with a glance at Bran.
Bran looked away and pretended not to have heard, but he could feel Greyjoy's eyes on him. No doubt
he was smiling. He smiled a lot,
as if the world were a secret joke that only he was clever enough to understand. Robb seemed to
admire Theon and enjoy his company, but Bran had never warmed to his father's ward.
Robb rode closer. "You are doing well, Bran."
"I want to go faster," Bran replied.
Robb smiled. "As you will." He sent his gelding into a trot. The wolves raced after him. Bran snapped
the reins sharply, and Dancer picked up her pace. He heard a shout from Theon Greyjoy, and the
hoofbeats of the other horses behind him.
Bran's cloak billowed out, rippling in the wind, and the snow seemed to rush at his face. Robb was well
ahead, glancing back over his shoulder from time to time to make sure Bran and the others were
following. He snapped the reins again. Smooth as silk, Dancer slid into a gallop. The distance closed. By
the time he caught Robb on the edge of the wolfswood, two miles beyond the winter town, they had left
the others well behind. "I can tide!" Bran shouted, grinning. It felt almost as good as flying.
"I'd race you, but I fear you'd win." Robb's tone was light and joking, yet Bran could tell that something
was troubling his brother underneath the smile.
"I don't want to race." Bran looked around for the direwolves. Both had vanished into the wood. "Did
you hear Summer howling last night?"
"Grey Wind was restless too," Robb said. His auburn hair had grown shaggy and unkempt, and a
reddish stubble covered his jaw, making him look older than his fifteen years. "Sometimes I think they
know things . . . sense things . . ." Robb sighed. "I never know how much to tell you, Bran. I wish you
were older."
"I'm eight now!" Bran said. "Eight isn't so much younger than fifteen, and I'm the heir to Winterfell, after
you."
"So you are." Robb sounded sad, and even a little scared. "Bran, I need to tell you something. There
was a bird last night. From King's Landing. Maester Luwin woke me."
Bran felt a sudden dread. Dark wings, dark words, Old Nan always said, and of late the messenger
ravens had been proving the truth of the proverb. When Robb wrote to the Lord Commander of the
Night's Watch, the bird that came back brought word that Uncle Benjen was still missing. Then a
message had arrived from the Eyrie, from Mother, but that had not been good news either. She did not
say when she meant to return, only that she had taken the Imp as prisoner. Bran had sort of liked the little
man, yet the name Lannister sent cold fingers creeping up his spine. There was something about the
Lannisters,


something he ought to remember, but when he tried to think what, he felt dizzy and his stomach clenched
hard as a stone. Robb spent most of that day locked behind closed doors with Maester Luwin, Theon
Greyjoy, and Hallis Mollen. Afterward, riders were sent out on fast horses, carrying Robb's commands
throughout the north. Bran heard talk of Moat Cailin, the ancient stronghold the First Men had built at the
top of the Neck. No one ever told him what was happening, yet he knew it was not good.
And now another raven, another message. Bran clung to hope. "Was the bird from Mother? Is she
coming home?"
"The message was from Alyn in King's Landing. Jory Cassel is dead. And Wyl and Heward as well.
Murdered by the Kingslayer." Robb lifted his face to the snow, and the flakes melted on his cheeks.
"May the gods give them rest."
Bran did not know what to say. He felt as if he'd been punched. Jory had been captain of the household
guard at Winterfell since before Bran was born. "They killed Jory?" He remembered all the times Jory
had chased him over the roofs. He could picture him striding across the yard in mail and plate, or sitting
at his accustomed place on the bench in the Great Hall, joking as he ate. "Why would anyone kill Jory?"
Robb shook his head numbly, the pain plain in his eyes. "I don't know, and . . . Bran, that's not the worst
of it. Father was caught beneath a falling horse in the fight. Alyn says his leg was shattered, and . . .
Maester Pycelle has given him the milk of the poppy, but they aren't sure when . . . when he . . ." The
sound of hoofbeats made him glance down the road, to where Theon and the others were coming up.
"When he will wake," Robb finished. He laid his hand on the pommel of his sword then, and went on in
the solemn voice of Robb the Lord. "Bran, I promise you, whatever might happen, I will not let this be
forgotten."
Something in his tone made Bran even more fearful. "What will you do?" he asked as Theon Greyjoy
reined in beside them.
"Theon thinks I should call the banners," Robb said.
"Blood for blood." For once Greyjoy did not smile. His lean, dark face had a hungry look to it, and
black hair fell down across his eyes.
"Only the lord can call the banners," Bran said as the snow drifted down around them.
"If your father dies," Theon said, "Robb will be Lord of Winterfell."
"He won't die!" Bran screamed at him.
Robb took his hand. "He won't die, not Father," he said calmly.
"Still ... the honor of the north is in my hands now. When our lord father took his leave of us, he told me
to be strong for you and for Rickon. I'm almost a man grown, Bran."
Bran shivered. "I wish Mother was back," he said miserably. He looked around for Maester Luwin; his
donkey was visible in the far distance, trotting over a rise. "Does Maester Luwin say to call the banners


too?"
"The maester is timid as an old woman," said Theon.
"Father always listened to his counsel," Bran reminded his brother. "Mother too."
"I listen to him," Robb insisted. "I listen to everyone."
The joy Bran had felt at the ride was gone, melted away like the snowflakes on his face. Not so long
ago, the thought of Robb calling the banners and riding off to war would have filled him with excitement,
but now he felt only dread. "Can we go back now?" he asked. "I'm cold."
Robb glanced around. "We need to find the wolves. Can you stand to go a bit longer?"
"I can go as long as you can." Maester Luwin had warned him to keep the ride short, for fear of saddle
sores, but Bran would not admit to weakness in front of his brother. He was sick of the way everyone
was always fussing over him and asking how he was.
"Let's hunt down the hunters, then," Robb said. Side by side, they urged their mounts off the kingsroad
and struck out into the wolfswood. Theon dropped back and followed well behind them, talking and
joking with the guardsmen.
It was nice under the trees. Bran kept Dancer to a walk, holding the reins lightly and looking all around
him as they went. He knew this wood, but he had been so long confined to Winterfell that he felt as
though he were seeing it for the first time. The smells filled his nostrils; the sharp fresh tang of pine
needles, the earthy odor of wet rotting leaves, the hints of animal musk and distant cooking fires. He
caught a glimpse of a black squirrel moving through the snow-covered branches of an oak, and paused
to study the silvery web of an empress spider.
Theon and the others fell farther and farther behind, until Bran could no longer hear their voices. From
ahead came the faint sound of rushing waters. It grew louder until they reached the stream. Tears stung
his eyes.
"Bran?" Robb asked. "What's wrong?"
Bran shook his head. "I was just remembering," he said. "Jory brought us here once, to fish for trout.
You and me and Jon. Do you remember?"
"I remember," Robb said, his voice quiet and sad.
"I didn't catch anything," Bran said, "but Jon gave me his fish on the way back to Winterfell. Will we ever
see Jon again?"
"We saw Uncle Benjen when the king came to visit," Robb pointed out. "Jon will visit too, you'll see."
The stream was running high and fast. Robb dismounted and led his gelding across the ford. In the
deepest part of the crossing, the water came up to midthigh. He tied his horse to a tree on the far side,
and waded back across for Bran and Dancer. The current foamed around rock and root, and Bran could
feel the spray on his face as Robb led him over. It made him smile. For a moment he felt strong again,


and whole. He looked up at the trees and dreamed of climbing them, right up to the very top, with the
whole forest spread out beneath him.
They were on the far side when they heard the howl, a long rising wail that moved through the trees like
a cold wind. Bran raised his head to listen. "Summer," he said. No sooner had he spoken than a second
voice joined the first.
"They've made a kill," Robb said as he remounted. "I'd best go and bring them back. Wait here, Theon
and the others should be along shortly."
"I want to go with you," Bran said.
"I'll find them faster by myself." Robb spurred his gelding and vanished into the trees.
Once he was gone, the woods seemed to close in around Bran. The snow was falling more heavily now.
Where it touched the ground it melted, but all about him rock and root and branch wore a thin blanket of
white. As he waited, he was conscious of how uncomfortable he felt. He could not feel his legs, hanging
useless in the stirrups, but the strap around his chest was tight and chafing, and the melting snow had
soaked through his gloves to chill his hands. He wondered what was keeping Theon and Maester Luwin
and Joseth and the rest.
When he heard the rustle of leaves, Bran used the reins to make Dancer turn, expecting to see his
friends, but the ragged men who stepped out onto the bank of the stream were strangers.
"Good day to you," he said nervously. One look, and Bran knew they were neither foresters nor
farmers. He was suddenly conscious of how richly he was dressed. His surcoat was new, dark grey wool
with silver buttons, and a heavy silver pin fastened his fur-trimmed cloak at the shoulders. His boots and
gloves were lined with fur as well.
"All alone, are you?" said the biggest of them, a bald man with a raw windburnt face. "Lost in the
wolfswood, poor lad."
"I'm not lost." Bran did not like the way the strangers were looking
at him. He counted four, but when he turned his head, he saw two others behind him. "My brother rode
off just a moment ago, and my guard will be here shortly."
"Your guard, is it?" a second man said. Grey stubble covered his gaunt face. "And what would they be
guarding, my little lord? Is that a silver pin I see there on your cloak?"
"Pretty," said a woman's voice. She scarcely looked like a woman; tall and lean, with the same hard face
as the others, her hair hidden beneath a bowl-shaped halfhelm. The spear she held was eight feet of black
oak, tipped in rusted steel.
"Let's have a look," said the big bald man.
Bran watched him anxiously. The man's clothes were filthy, fallen almost to pieces, patched here with
brown and here with blue and there with a dark green, and faded everywhere to grey, but once that
cloak might have been black. The grey stubbly man wore black rags too, he saw with a sudden start.


Suddenly Bran remembered the oathbreaker his father had beheaded, the day they had found the wolf
pups; that man had worn black as well, and Father said he had been a deserter from the Night's Watch.
No man is more dangerous, he remembered Lord Eddard saying. The deserter knows his life is forfeit if
he is taken, so he will notflinch from any crime, no matter how vile or crueL
"The pin, lad," the big man said. He held out his hand.
"We'll take the horse too," said another of them, a woman shorter than Robb, with a broad fiat face and
lank yellow hair. "Get down, and be quick about it." A knife slid from her sleeve into her hand, its edge
jagged as a saw.
"No," Bran blurted. "I can't
The big man grabbed his reins before Bran could think to wheel Dancer around and gallop off. "You
can, lordling . . . and will, if you know what's good for you."
"Stiv, look how he's strapped on." The tall woman pointed with her spear. "Might be it's the truth he's
telling."
"Straps, is it?" Stiv said. He drew a dagger from a sheath at his belt. "There's ways to deal with straps."
"You some kind of cripple?" asked the short woman.
Bran flared. "I'm Brandon Stark of Winterfell, and you better let go of my horse, or I'll see you all dead."
The gaunt man with the grey stubbled face laughed. "The boy's a Stark, true enough. Only a Stark would
be fool enough to threaten where smarter men would beg."
"Cut his little cock off and stuff it in his mouth," suggested the short woman. "That should shut him up."
"You're as stupid as you are ugly, Hali," said the tall woman. "The boy's worth nothing dead, but alive . .
. gods be damned, think what Mance would give to have Benjen Stark's own blood to hostage!"
"Mance be damned," the big man cursed. "You want to go back there, Osha? More fool you. Think the
white walkers will care if you have a hostage?" He turned back to Bran and slashed at the strap around
his thigh. The leather parted with a sigh.
The stroke had been quick and careless, biting deep. Looking down, Bran glimpsed pale flesh where the
wool of his leggings had parted. Then the blood began to flow. He watched the red stain spread, feeling
light-headed, curiously apart; there had been no pain, not even a hint of feeling. The big man grunted in
surprise.
"Put down your steel now, and I promise you shall have a quick and painless death," Robb called out.
Bran looked up in desperate hope, and there he was. The strength of the words were undercut by the
way his voice cracked with strain. He was mounted, the bloody carcass of an elk slung across the back
of his horse, his sword in a gloved hand.
"The brother," said the man with the grey stubbly face.


"He's a fierce one, he is," mocked the short woman. Hali, they called her. "You mean to fight us, boy?"
"Don't be a fool, lad. You're one against six." The tall woman, Osha, leveled her spear. "Off the horse,
and throw down the sword. We'll thank you kindly for the mount and for the venison, and you and your
brother can be on your way."
Robb whistled. They heard the faint sound of soft feet on wet leaves. The undergrowth parted,
low-hanging branches giving up their accumulation of snow, and Grey Wind and Summer emerged from
the green. Summer sniffed the air and growled.
"Wolves," gasped Hali.
"Direwolves," Bran said. Still half-grown, they were as large as any wolf he had ever seen, but the
differences were easy to spot, if you knew what to look for. Maester Luwin and Farlen the kennelmaster
had taught him. A direwolf had a bigger head and longer legs in proportion to its body, and its snout and
jaw were markedly leaner and more pronounced. There was something gaunt and terrible about them as
they stood there amid the gently falling snow. Fresh blood spotted Grey Wind's muzzle.
"Dogs," the big bald man said contemptuously. "Yet I'm told there's nothing like a wolfskin cloak to
warm a man by night." He made a sharp gesture. "Take them."
Robb shouted, "Winterfell!" and kicked his horse. The gelding
plunged down the bank as the ragged men closed. A man with an axe rushed in, shouting and heedless.
Robb's sword caught him full in the face with a sickening crunch and a spray of bright blood. The man
with the gaunt stubbly face made a grab for the reins, and for half a second he had them . . . and then
Grey Wind was on him, bearing him down. He fell back into the stream with a splash and a shout, flailing
wildly with his knife as his head went under. The direwolf plunged in after him, and the white water turned
red where they had vanished.
Robb and Osha matched blows in midstream. Her long spear was a steel-headed serpent, flashing out at
his chest, once, twice, three times, but Robb parried every thrust with his longsword, turning the point
aside. On the fourth or fifth thrust, the tall woman overextended herself and lost her balance, just for a
second. Robb charged, riding her down.
A few feet away, Summer darted in and snapped at Hali. The knife bit at his flank. Summer slid away,
snarling, and came rushing in again. This time his jaws closed around her calf. Holding the knife with both
hands, the small woman stabbed down, but the direwolf seemed to sense the blade coming. He pulled
free for an instant, his mouth full of leather and cloth and bloody flesh. When Hali stumbled and fell, he
came at her again, slamming her backward, teeth tearing at her belly.
The sixth man ran from the carnage . . . but not far. As he went scrambling up the far side of the bank,
Grey Wind emerged from the stream, dripping wet. He shook the water off and bounded after the
running man, hamstringing him with a single snap of his teeth, and going for the throat as the screaming
man slid back down toward the water.
And then there was no one left but the big man, Stiv. He slashed at Bran's chest strap, grabbed his arm,
and yanked. Suddenly Bran was falling. He sprawled on the ground, his legs tangled under him, one foot


in the stream. He could not feel the cold of the water, but he felt the steel when Stiv pressed his dagger to
his throat. "Back away," the man warned, "or I'll open the boy's windpipe, I swear it."
Robb reined his horse in, breathing hard. The fury went out of his eyes, and his sword arm dropped.
In that moment Bran saw everything. Summer was savaging Hali, pulling glistening blue snakes from her
belly. Her eyes were wide and staring. Bran could not tell whether she was alive or dead. The grey
stubbly man and the one with the axe lay unmoving, but Osha was on her knees, crawling toward her
fallen spear. Grey Wind padded toward her, dripping wet. "Call him off!" the big man shouted. "Call
them both off, or the cripple boy dies now!"
"Grey Wind, Summer, to me," Robb said.
The direwolves stopped, turned their heads. Grey Wind loped back to Robb. Summer stayed where he
was, his eyes on Bran and the man beside him. He growled. His muzzle was wet and red, but his eyes
burned.
Osha used the butt end of her spear to lever herself back to her feet. Blood leaked from a wound on the
upper arm where Robb had cut her. Bran could see sweat trickling down the big man's face. Stiv was as
scared as he was, he realized. "Starks," the man muttered, "bloody Starks." He raised his voice. "Osha,
kill the wolves and get his sword."
"Kill them yourself," she replied. "I'll not be getting near those monsters."
For a moment Stiv was at a loss. His hand trembled; Bran felt a trickle of blood where the knife pressed
against his neck. The stench of the man filled his nose; he smelled of fear. "You," he called out to Robb.
"You have a name?"
"I am Robb Stark, the heir to Winterfell."
"This is your brother?"
"Yes.,,
"You want him alive, you do what I say. Off the horse."
Robb hesitated a moment. Then, slowly and deliberately, he dismounted and stood with his sword in
hand.
"Now kill the wolves."
Robb did not move.
"You do it. The wolves or the boy."
"No!" Bran screamed. If Robb did as they asked, Stiv would kill them both anyway, once the
direwolves were dead.
The bald man took hold of his hair with his free hand and twisted it cruelly, till Bran sobbed in pain. "You


shut your mouth, cripple, you hear me?" He twisted harder. "You hear me?"
A low thrum came from the woods behind them. Stiv gave a choked gasp as a half foot of razor-tipped
broadhead suddenly exploded out of his chest. The arrow was bright red, as if it had been painted in
blood.
The dagger fell away from Bran's throat. The big man swayed and collapsed, facedown in the stream.
The arrow broke beneath him. Bran watched his life go swirling off in the water.
Osha glanced around as Father's guardsmen appeared from beneath the trees, steel in hand. She threw
down her spear. "Mercy, m'lord," she called to Robb.
The guardsmen had a strange, pale look to their faces as they took in the scene of slaughter. They eyed
the wolves uncertainly, and when Summer returned to Hali's corpse to feed, Joseth dropped his knife
and scrambled for the bush, heaving. Even Maester Luwin seemed shocked as he stepped from behind
a tree, but only for an instant. Then he shook his head and waded across the stream to Bran's side. "Are
you hurt?"
"He cut my leg," Bran said, "but I couldn't feel it."
As the maester knelt to examine the wound, Bran turned his head. Theon Greyjoy stood beside a
sentinel tree, his bow in hand. He was smiling. Ever smiling. A half-dozen arrows were thrust into the soft
ground at his feet, but it had taken only one. "A dead enemy is a thing of beauty," he announced.
"Jon always said you were an ass, Greyjoy," Robb said loudly. "I ought to chain you up in the yard and
let Bran take a few practice shots at you. "
"You should be thanking me for saving your brother's life."
"What if you had missed the shot?" Robb said. "What if you'd only wounded him? What if you had made
his hand jump, or hit Bran instead? For all you knew, the man might have been wearing a breastplate, all
you could see was the back of his cloak. What would have happened to my brother then? Did you ever
think of that, Greyjoy?"
Theon's smile was gone. He gave a sullen shrug and began to pull his arrows from the ground, one by
one.
Robb glared at his guardsmen. "Where were you?" he demanded of them. "I was sure you were close
behind us."
The men traded unhappy glances. "We were following, m'lord," said Quent, the youngest of them, his
beard a soft brown fuzz. "Only first we waited for Maester Luwin and his ass, begging your pardons, and
then, well, as it were He glanced over at Theon and quickly looked away, abashed.
"I spied a turkey," Theon said, annoyed by the question. "How was I to know that you'd leave the boy
alone?"
Robb turned his head to look at Theon once more. Bran had never seen him so angry, yet he said


nothing. Finally he knelt beside Maester Luwin. "How badly is my brother wounded?"
"No more than a scratch," the maester said. He wet a cloth in the stream to clean the cut. "Two of them
wear the black," he told Robb as he worked.
Robb glanced over at where Stiv lay sprawled in the stream, his ragged black cloak moving fitfully as the
rushing waters tugged at it. "Deserters from the Night's Watch," he said grimly. "They must have been
fools, to come so close to Winterfell."
"Folly and desperation are ofttimes hard to tell apart," said Maester Luwin.
A GAML OF THRONLS 359
"Shall we bury them, m'lord?" asked Quent.
"They would not have buried us," Robb said. "Hack off their heads, we'll send them back to the Wall.
Leave the rest for the carrion crows."
"And this one?" Quent jerked a thumb toward Osha.
Robb walked over to her. She was a head taller than he was, but she dropped to her knees at his
approach. "Give me my life, m1ord of Stark, and I am yours."
"Mine? What would I do with an oathbreaker?"
"I broke no oaths. Stiv and Wallen flew down off the Wall, not me. The black crows got no place for
women."
Theon Greyjoy sauntered closer. "Give her to the wolves," he urged Robb. The woman's eyes went to
what was left of Hali, and just as quickly away. She shuddered. Even the guardsmen looked queasy.
"She's a woman," Robb said.
"A wildling," Bran told him. "She said they should keep me alive so they could take me to Mance
Rayder."
"Do you have a name?" Robb asked her.
"Osha, as it please the lord," she muttered sourly.
Maester Luwin stood. "We might do well to question her."
Bran could see the relief on his brother's face. "As you say, Maester. Wayn, bind her hands. She'll come
back to Winterfell with us . . . and live or die by the truths she gives us."
TYRION
"Yu want eat?" Mord asked, glowering. He had a plate of oiled beans in one thick, stub-fingered hand.


Tyrion Lannister was starved, but he refused to let this brute see him cringe. "A leg of lamb would be
pleasant," he said, from the heap of soiled straw in the corner of his cell. "Perhaps a dish of peas and
onions, some fresh baked bread with butter, and a flagon of mulled wine to wash it down. Or beer, if
that's easier. I try not to be overly particular."
"Is beans," Mord said. "Here." He held out the plate.
Tyrion sighed. The turnkey was twenty stone of gross stupidity, with brown rotting teeth and small dark
eyes. The left side of his face was slick with scar where an axe had cut off his ear and part of his cheek.
He was as predictable as he was ugly, but Tyrion was hungry. He reached up for the plate.
Mord jerked it away, grinning. "Is here," he said, holding it out beyond Tyrion's reach.
The dwarf climbed stiffly to his feet, every joint aching. "Must we play the same fool's game with every
meal?" He made another grab for the beans.
Mord shambled backward, grinning through his rotten teeth. "Is here, dwarf man." He held the plate out
at arm's length, over the edge
where the cell ended and the sky began. "You not want eat? Here. Come take."
Tyrion's arms were too short to reach the plate, and he was not about to step that close to the edge. All
it would take would be a quick shove of Mord's heavy white belly, and he would end up a sickening red
splotch on the stones of Sky, like so many other prisoners of the Eyrie over the centuries. "Come to think
on it, I'm not hungry after all," he declared, retreating to the corner of his cell.
Mord grunted and opened his thick fingers. The wind took the plate, flipping it over as it fell. A handful
of beans sprayed back at them as the food tumbled out of sight. The turnkey laughed, his gut shaking like
a bowl of pudding.
Tyrion felt a pang of rage. "You fucking son of a pox-ridden ass," he spat. "I hope you die of a bloody
flux."
For that, Mord gave him a kick, driving a steel-toed boot hard into Tyrion's ribs on the way out. "I take
it back!" he gasped as he doubled over on the straw. "I'll kill you myself, I swear it!" The heavy
ironbound door slammed shut. Tyrion heard the rattle of keys.
For a small man, he had been cursed with a dangerously big mouth, he reflected as he crawled back to
his corner of what the Arryns laughably called their dungeon. He huddled beneath the thin blanket that
was his only bedding, staring out at a blaze of empty blue sky and distant mountains that seemed to go on
forever, wishing he still had the shadowskin cloak he'd won from Marillion at dice, after the singer had
stolen it off the body of that brigand chief. The skin had smelled of blood and mold, but it was warm and
thick. Mord had taken it the moment he laid eyes on it.
The wind tugged at his blanket with gusts sharp as talons. His cell was miserably small, even for a dwarf.
Not five feet away, where a wall ought to have been, where a wall would be in a proper dungeon, the
floor ended and the sky began. He had plenty of fresh air and sunshine, and the moon and stars by night,
but Tyrion would have traded it all in an instant for the dankest, gloomiest pit in the bowels of the
Casterly Rock.


"You fly," Mord had promised him, when he'd shoved him into the cell. "Twenty day, thirty, fifty maybe.
Then you fly."
The Arryns kept the only dungeon in the realm where the prisoners were welcome to escape at will.
That first day, after girding up his courage for hours, Tyrion had lain flat on his stomach and squirmed to
the edge, to poke out his head and look down. Sky was six hundred feet below, with nothing between
but empty air. If he craned his neck out as far as it could go, he could see other cells to his right and left
and
above him. He was a bee in a stone honeycomb, and someone had torn off his wings.
It was cold in the cell, the wind screamed night and day, and worst of all, the floor sloped. Ever so
slightly, yet it was enough. He was afraid to close his eyes, afraid that he might roll over in his steep and
wake in sudden terror as he went sliding off the edge. Small wonder the sky cells drove men mad.
Gods save me, some previous tenant had written on the wall in something that looked suspiciously like
blood, the blue is calling. At first Tyrion wondered who he'd been, and what had become of him; later, he
decided that he would rather not know.
If only he had shut his mouth . . .
The wretched boy had started it, looking down on him from a throne of carved weirwood beneath the
moon-and-falcon banners of House Arryn. Tyrion Lannister had been looked down on all his life, but
seldom by rheumy-eyed six-year-olds who needed to stuff fat cushions under their cheeks to lift them to
the height of a man. "Is he the bad man?" the boy had asked, clutching his doll.
"He is," the Lady Lysa had said from the lesser throne beside him. She was all in blue, powdered and
perfumed for the suitors who filled her court.
"He's so small," the Lord of the Eyrie said, giggling.
"This is Tyrion the Imp, of House Lannister, who murdered your father." She raised her voice so it
carried down the length of High Hall of the Eyrie, ringing off the milk-white walls and the slender pillars,
so every man could hear it. "He slew the Hand of the King!"
"Oh, did I kill him too?" Tyrion had said, like a fool.
That would have been a very good time to have kept his mouth closed and his head bowed. He could
see that now; seven hells, he had seen it then. The High Hall of the Arryns was long and austere, with a
forbidding coldness to its walls of blue-veined white marble, but the faces around him had been colder by
far. The power of Casterly Rock was far away, and there were no friends of the Lannisters in the Vale of
Arryn. Submission and silence would have been his best defenses.
But Tyrion's mood had been too foul for sense. To his shame, he had faltered during the last leg of their
day-long climb up to the Eyrie, his stunted legs unable to take him any higher. Brorm had carried him the
rest of the way, and the humiliation poured oil on the flames of his anger. "It would seem I've been a busy
little fellow," he said with bitter sarcasm. "I wonder when I found the time to do all this slaying and
murdering."


He ought to have remembered who he was dealing with. Lysa Arryn
and her half-sane weakling son had not been known at court for their love of wit, especially when it was
directed at them.
"Imp," Lysa said coldly, "you will guard that mocking tongue of yours and speak to my son politely, or I
promise you will have cause to regret it. Remember where you are. This is the Eyrie, and these are
knights of the Vale you see around you, true men who loved Jon Arryn well. Every one of them would
die for me."
"Lady Arryn, should any harm come to me, my brother Jaime will be pleased to see that they do." Even
as he spat out the words, Tyrion knew they were folly.
"Can you fly, my lord of Lannister?" Lady Lysa asked. "Does a dwarf have wings? If not, you would be
wiser to swallow the next threat that comes to mind."
"I made no threats," Tyrion said. "That was a promise."
Little Lord Robert hopped to his feet at that, so upset he dropped his doll. "You can't hurt us," he
screamed. "No one can hurt us here. Tell him, Mother, tell him he can't hurt us here." The boy began to
twitch.
"The Eyrie is impregnable," Lysa Arryn declared calmly. She drew her son close, holding him safe in the
circle of her plump white arms. "The Imp is trying to frighten us, sweet baby. The Lannisters are all liars.
No one will hurt my sweet boy."
The hell of it was, she was no doubt right. Having seen what it took to get here, Tyrion could well
imagine how it would be for a knight trying to fight his way up in armor, while stones and arrows poured
down from above and enemies contested with him for every step. Nightmare did not begin to describe it.
Small wonder the Eyrie had never been taken.
Still, Tyrion had been unable to silence himself. "Not impregnable," he said, "merely inconvenient."
Young Robert pointed down, his hand trembling. "You're a liar. Mother, I want to see him fly." Two
guardsmen in sky-blue cloaks seized Tyrion by the arms, lifting him off his floor.
The gods only know what might have happened then were it not for Catelyn Stark. "Sister," she called
out from where she stood below the thrones, "I beg you to remember, this man is my prisoner. I will not
have him harmed."
Lysa Arryn glanced at her sister coolly for a moment, then rose and swept down on Tyrion, her long
skirts trailing after her. For an instant he feared she would strike him, but instead she commanded them to
release him. Her men shoved him to the floor, his legs went out from under him, and Tyrion fell.
He must have made quite a sight as he struggled to his knees, only to feel his right leg spasm, sending him
sprawling once more. Laughter boomed up and down the High Hall of the Arryns.


"My sister's little guest is too weary to stand," Lady Lysa announced. "Ser Vardis, take him down to the
dungeon. A rest in one of our sky cells will do him much good."
The guardsmen jerked him upright. Tyrion Lannister dangled between them, kicking feebly, his face red
with shame. "I will remember this," he told them all as they carried him off.
And so he did, for all the good it did him.
At first he had consoled himself that this imprisonment could not last long. Lysa Arryn wanted to humble
him, that was all. She would send for him again, and soon. If not her, then Catelyn Stark would want to
question him. This time he would guard his tongue more closely. They dare not kill him out of hand; he
was still a Lannister of Casterly Rock, and if they shed his blood, it would mean war. Or so he had told
himself.
Now he was not so certain.
Perhaps his captors only meant to let him rot here, but he feared he did not have the strength to rot for
long. He was growing weaker every day, and it was only a matter of time until Mord's kicks and blows
did him serious harm, provided the gaoler did not starve him to death first. A few more nights of cold and
hunger, and the blue would start calling to him too.
He wondered what was happening beyond the walls (such as they were) of his cell. Lord Tywin would
surely have sent out riders when the word reached him. Jaime might be leading a host through the
Mountains of the Moon even now . . . unless he was riding north against Winterfell instead. Did anyone
outside the Vale even suspect where Catelyn Stark had taken him? He wondered what Cersei would do
when she heard. The king could order him freed, but would Robert listen to his queen or his Hand?
Tyrion had no illusions about the king's love for his sister.
If Cersei kept her wits about her, she would insist the king sit in judgment of Tyrion himself. Even Ned
Stark could scarcely object to that, not without impugning the honor of the king. And Tyrion would be
only too glad to take his chances in a trial. Whatever murders they might lay at his door, the Starks had
no proof of anything so far as he could see. Let them make their case before the Iron Throne and the
lords of the land. It would be the end of them. If only Cersei were clever enough to see that . . .
Tyrion Lannister sighed. His sister was not without a certain low
A GAML OF THRONLS 365
cunning, but her pride blinded her. She would see the insult in this, not the opportunity. And Jaime was
even worse, rash and headstrong and quick to anger. His brother never untied a knot when he could
slash it in two with his sword.
He wondered which of them had sent the footpad to silence the Stark boy, and whether they had truly
conspired at the death of Lord Arryn. If the old Hand had been murdered, it was deftly and subtly done.
Men of his age died of sudden illness all the time. In contrast, sending some oaf with a stolen knife after
Brandon Stark struck him as unbelievably clumsy. And wasn't that peculiar, come to think on it . . .
Tyrion shivered. Now there was a nasty suspicion. Perhaps the direwolf and the lion were not the only
beasts in the woods, and if that was true, someone was using him as a catspaw. Tyrion Lannister hated
being used.


He would have to get out of here, and soon. His chances of overpowering Mord were small to none,
and no one was about to smuggle him a six-hundred-foot-long rope, so he would have to talk himself
free. His mouth had gotten him into this cell; it could damn well get him out.
Tyrion pushed himself to his feet, doing his best to ignore the slope of the floor beneath him, with its
ever-so-subtle tug toward the edge. He hammered on the door with a fist. "Mord!" he shouted.
"Turnkey! Mord, I want you!" He had to keep it up a good ten minutes before he heard footsteps. Tyrion
stepped back an instant before the door opened with a crash.
"Making noise," Mord growled, with blood in his eyes. Dangling from one meaty hand was a leather
strap, wide and thick, doubled over in his fist.
Never show them You're afraid, Tyrion reminded himself. "How would you like to be rich?" he asked.
Mord hit him. He swung the strap backhand, lazily, but the leather caught Tyrion high on the arm. The
force of it staggered him, and the pain made him grit his teeth. "No mouth, dwarf man," Mord warned
him.
"Gold," Tyrion said, miming a smile. "Casterly Rock is full of gold . . . ahhhh . . ." This time the blow was
a forehand, and Mord put more of his arm into the swing, making the leather crack and jump. It caught
Tyrion in the ribs and dropped him to his knees, wimpering. He forced himself to look up at the gaoler.
"As rich as the Lannisters," he wheezed. "That's what they say, Mord-"
Mord grunted. The strap whistled through the air and smashed Tyrion full in the face. The pain was so
bad he did not remember
falling, but when he opened his eyes again he was on the floor of his cell. His ear was ringing, and his
mouth was full of blood. He groped for purchase, to push himself up, and his fingers brushed against . . .
nothing. Tyrion snatched his hand back as fast as if it had been scalded, and tried his best to stop
breathing. He had fallen right on the edge, inches from the blue.
"More to say?" Mord held the strap between his fists and gave it a sharp pull. The snap made Tyrion
jump. The turnkey laughed.
He won'tpush me over, Tyrion told himself desperately as he crawled away from the edge. Catelyn
Stark wants me alive, he doesn't dare kill me. He wiped the blood off his lips with the back of his hand,
grinned, and said, "That was a stiff one, Mord." The gaoler squinted at him, trying to decide if he was
being mocked. "I could make good use of a strong man like you." The strap flew at him, but this time
Tyrion was able to cringe away from it. He took a glancing blow to the shoulder, nothing more. "Gold,"
he repeated, scrambling backward like a crab, ,'more gold than you'll see here in a lifetime. Enough to
buy land, women, horses . . . you could be a lord. Lord Mord." Tyrion hawked up a glob of blood and
phlegm and spat it out into the sky.
"Is no gold," Mord said.
He's listening! Tyrion thought. "They relieved me of my purse when they captured me, but the gold is still
mine. Catelyn Stark might take a man prisoner, but she'd never stoop to rob him. That wouldn't be
honorable. Help me, and all the gold is yours." Mord's strap licked out, but it was a halfhearted,


desultory swing, slow and contemptuous. Tyrion caught the leather in his hand and held it prisoned.
"There will be no risk to you. All you need do is deliver a message."
The gaoler yanked his leather strap free of Tyrion's grasp. "Message," he said, as if he had never heard
the word before. His frown made deep creases in his brow.
"You heard me, my lord. Only carry my word to your lady. Tell her . . ." "at? "at would possibly make
Lysa Anyn relent? The inspiration came to Tyrion Lannister suddenly. tell her that I wish to confess my
crimes."
Mord raised his arm and Tyrion braced himself for another blow, but the turnkey hesitated. Suspicion
and greed warred in his eyes. He wanted that gold, yet he feared a trick; he had the look of a man who
had often been tricked. "Is lie," he muttered darkly. "Dwarf man cheat me.,,
"I will put my promise in writing," Tyrion vowed.
Some illiterates held writing in disdain; others seemed to have a superstitious reverence for the written
word, as if it were some sort of
A GAML OF THRONLS 367
magic. Fortunately, Mord was one of the latter. The turnkey lowered the strap. "Writing down gold.
Much gold."
"Oh, much gold," Tyrion assured him. "The purse is just a taste, my friend. My brother wears armor of
solid gold plate." In truth, Jaime's armor was gilded steel, but this oaf would never know the difference.
Mord fingered his strap thoughtfully, but in the end, he relented and went to fetch paper and ink. When
the letter was written, the gaoler frowned at it suspiciously. "Now deliver my message," Tyrion urged.
He was shivering in his sleep when they came for him, late that night. Mord opened the door but kept his
silence. Ser Vardis Egen woke Tyrion with the point of his boot. "On your feet, Imp. My lady wants to
see you."
Tyrion rubbed the sleep from his eyes and put on a grimace he scarcely felt. "No doubt she does, but
what makes you think I wish to see her?"
Ser Vardis frowned. Tyrion remembered him well from the years he had spent at King's Landing as the
captain of the Hand's household guard. A square, plain face, silver hair, a heavy build, and no humor
whatsoever. "Your wishes are not my concern. On your feet, or I'll have you carried."
Tyrion clambered awkwardly to his feet. "A cold night," he said casually, "and the High Hall is so drafty.
I don't wish to catch a chill. Mord, if you would be so good, fetch my cloak."
The gaoler squinted at him, face dull with suspicion.
"My cloak," Tyrion repeated. "The shadowskin you took from me for safekeeping. You recall."
"Get him the damnable cloak," Ser Vardis said.
Mord did not dare grumble. He gave Tyrion a glare that promised future retribution, yet he went for the


cloak. When he draped it around his prisoner's neck, Tyrion smiled. "My thanks. I shall think of you
whenever I wear it." He flung the trailing end of the long fur over his right shoulder, and felt warm for the
first time in days. "Lead on, Ser Vardis."
The High Hall of the Arryns was aglow with the light of fifty torches, burning in the sconces along the
walls. The Lady Lysa wore black silk, with the moon-and-falcon sewn on her breast in pearls. Since she
did not look the sort to join the Night's Watch, Tyrion could only imagine that she had decided mourning
clothes were appropriate garb for a confession. Her long auburn hair, woven into an elaborate braid, fell
across her left shoulder. The taller throne beside her was
empty; no doubt the little Lord of the Eyrie was off shaking in his sleep. Tyrion was thankful for that
much, at least.
He bowed deeply and took a moment to glance around the hall. Lady Arryn had summoned her knights
and retainers to hear his confession, as he had hoped. He saw Ser Brynden Tully's craggy face and Lord
Nestor Royce's bluff one. Beside Nestor stood a younger man with fierce black side-whiskers who
could only be his heir, Ser Albar. Most of the principal houses of the Vale were represented. Tyrion
noted Ser Lyn Corbray, slender as a sword, Lord Hunter with his gouty legs, the widowed Lady
Waynwood surrounded by her sons. Others sported sigils he did not know; broken lance, green viper,
burning tower, winged chalice.
Among the lords of the Vale were several of his companions from the high road; Ser Rodrik Cassel,
pale from half-healed wounds, stood with Ser Willis Wode beside him. Marillion the singer had found a
new woodharp. Tyrion smiled; whatever happened here tonight, he did not wish it to happen in secret,
and there was no one like a singer for spreading a story near and far.
In the rear of the hall, Bronn lounged beneath a pillar. The freerider's black eyes were fixed on Tyrion,
and his hand lay lightly on the pommel of his sword. Tyrion gave him a long look, wondering . . .
Catelyn Stark spoke first. "You wish to confess your crimes, we are told."
"I do, my lady," Tyrion answered.
Lysa Arryn smiled at her sister. "The sky cells always break them. The gods can see them there, and
there is no darkness to hide in."
"He does not look broken to me," Lady Catelyn said.
Lady Lysa paid her no mind. "Say what you will," she commanded Tyrion.
And now to roll the dice, he thought with another quick glance back at Bronn. "Where to begin? I am a
vile little man, I confess it. My crimes and sins are beyond counting, my lords and ladies. I have lain with
whores, not once but hundreds of times. I have wished my own lord father dead, and my sister, our
gracious queen, as well." Behind him, someone chuckled. "I have not always treated my servants with
kindness. I have gambled. I have even cheated, I blush to admit. I have said many cruel and malicious
things about the noble lords and ladies of the court." That drew outright laughter. "Once I-"
"Silence!" Lysa Arryn's pale round face had turned a burning pink. "What do you imagine you are doing,
dwarf?"


Tyrion cocked his head to one side. "Why, confessing my crimes, my lady-"
Catelyn Stark took a step forward. "You are accused of sending a hired knife to slay my son Bran in his
bed, and of conspiring to murder Lord Jon Arryn, the Hand of the King."
Tyrion gave a helpless shrug. "Those crimes I cannot confess, I fear. I know nothing of any murders."
Lady Lysa rose from her weirwood throne. "I will not be made mock of. You have had your little jape,
Imp. I trust you enjoyed it. Ser Vardis, take him back to the dungeon . . . but this time find him a smaller
cell, with a floor more sharply sloped."
"Is this how justice is done in the Vale?" Tyrion roared, so loudly that Ser Vardis froze for an instant.
"Does honor stop at the Bloody Gate? You accuse me of crimes, I deny them, so you throw me into an
open cell to freeze and starve." He lifted his head, to give them all a good look at the bruises Mord had
left on his face. "Where is the king's justice? Is the Eyrie not part of the Seven Kingdoms? I stand
accused, you say. Very well. I demand a ttial! Let me speak, and let my truth or falsehood be judged
openly, in the sight of gods and men."
A low murmuring filled the High Hall. He had her, Tyrion knew. He was highborn, the son of the most
powerful lord in the realm, the brother of the queen. He could not be denied a trial. Guardsmen in
sky-blue cloaks had started toward Tyrion, but Ser Vardis bid them halt and looked to Lady Lysa.
Her small mouth twitched in a petulant smile. "If you are tried and found to be guilty of the crimes for
which you stand accused, then by the king's own laws, you must pay with your life's blood. We keep no
headsman in the Eyrie, my lord of Lannister. Open the Moon Door."
The press of spectators parted. A narrow weirwood door stood between two slender marble pillars, a
crescent moon carved in the white wood. Those standing closest edged backward as a pair of
guardsmen marched through. One man removed the heavy bronze bars; the second pulled the door
inward. Their blue cloaks rose snapping from their shoulders, caught in the sudden gust of wind that came
howling through the open door. Beyond was the emptiness of the night sky, speckled with cold uncaring
stars.
"Behold the king's justice," Lysa Arryn said. Torch flames fluttered like permons along the walls, and
here and there the odd torch guttered out.
"Lysa, I think this unwise," Catelyn Stark said as the black wind swirled around the hall.
Her sister ignored her. "You want a trial, my lord of Lannister. Very well, a trial you shall have. My son
will listen to whatever you care to
say, and you shall hear his judgment. Then you may leave ... by one door or the other."
She looked so pleased with herself, Tyrion thought, and small wonder. How could a trial threaten her,
when her weakling son was the lord judge? Tyrion glanced at her Moon Door. Mother, I want to see him
fly! the boy had said. How many men had the snot-nosed little wretch sent through that door already?


" I thank you, my good lady, but I see no need to trouble Lord Robert," Tyrion said politely. "The gods
know the truth of my innocence. I will have their verdict, not the judgment of men. I demand trial by
combat."
A storm of sudden laughter filled the High Hall of the Arryns. Lord Nestor Royce snorted, Ser Willis
chuckled, Ser Lyn Corbray guffawed, and others threw back their heads and howled until tears ran
down their faces. Marillion clumsily plucked a gay note on his new woodharp with the fingers of his
broken hand. Even the wind seemed to whistle with derision as it came skirling through the Moon Door.
Lysa Arryn's watery blue eyes looked uncertain. He had caught her off balance. "You have that right, to
be sure."
The young knight with the green viper embroidered on his surcoat stepped forward and went to one
knee. "My lady, I beg the boon of championing your cause."
"The honor should be mine," old Lord Hunter said. "For the love I bore your lord husband, let me
avenge his death."
"My father served Lord Jon faithfully as High Steward of the Vale," Ser Albar Royce boomed. "Let me
serve his son in this."
"The gods favor the man with the just cause," said Ser Lyn Corbray, "yet often that turns out to be the
man with the surest sword. We all know who that is." He smiled modestly.
A dozen other men all spoke at once, clamoring to be heard. Tyrion found it disheartening to realize so
many strangers were eager to kill him. Perhaps this had not been such a clever plan after all.
Lady Lysa raised a hand for silence. "I thank you, my lords, as I know my son would thank you if he
were among us. No men in the Seven Kingdoms are as bold and true as the knights of the Vale. Would
that I could grant you all this honor. Yet I can choose only one." She gestured. "Ser Vardis Egen, you
were ever my lord husband's good right hand. You shall be our champion."
Ser Vardis had been singularly silent. "My lady," he said gravely, sinking to one knee, "pray give this
burden to another, I have no taste for it. The man is no warrior. Look at him. A dwarf, half my size and
lame in the legs. It would be shameful to slaughter such a man and call it justice."
Oh, excellent, Tyrion thought. "I agree."
Lysa glared at him. "You demanded a trial by combat."
"And now I demand a champion, such as you have chosen for yourself. My brother Jaime will gladly
take my part, I know."
"Your precious Kingslayer is hundreds of leagues from here," snapped Lysa Arryn.
"Send a bird for him. I will gladly await his arrival."


"You will face Ser Vardis on the morrow."
"Singer," Tyrion said, turning to Marillion, "when you make a ballad of this, be certain you tell them how
Lady Arryn denied the dwarf the right to a champion, and sent him forth lame and bruised and hobbling
to face her finest knight."
"I deny you nothing!" Lysa Arryn said, her voice peeved and shrill with irritation. "Name your champion,
Imp . . . if you think you can find a man to die for you."
"If it is all the same to you, I'd sooner find one to kill for me." Tyrion looked over the long hall. No one
moved. For a long moment he wondered if it had all been a colossal blunder.
Then there was a stirring in the rear of the chamber. "I'll stand for the dwarf," Bronn called out.
EDDARD
He dreamt an old dream, of three knights in white cloaks, and a tower long fallen, and Lyanna in her bed
of blood.
In the dream his friends rode with him, as they had in life. Proud Martyn Cassel, Jory's father; faithful
Theo Wull; Ethan Glover, who had been Brandon's squire; Ser Mark Ryswell, soft of speech and gentle
of heart; the crannogman, Howland Reed; Lord Dustin on his great red stallion. Ned had known their
faces as well as he knew his own once, but the years leech at a man's memories, even those he has
vowed never to forget. In the dream they were only shadows, grey wraiths on horses made of mist.
They were seven, facing three. In the dream as it had been in life. Yet these were no ordinary three.
They waited before the round tower, the red mountains of Dorne at their backs, their white cloaks
blowing in the wind. And these were no shadows; their faces burned clear, even now. Ser Arthur Dayne,
the Sword of the Morning, had a sad smile on his lips. The hilt of the greatsword Dawn poked up over
his right shoulder. Ser Oswell Whent was on one knee, sharpening his blade with a whetstone. Across his
white-enameled helm, the black bat of his House spread its wings. Between them stood fierce old Ser
Gerold Hightower, the White Bull, Lord Commander of the Kingsguard.
"I looked for you on the Trident," Ned said to them.
"We were not there," Ser Gerold answered.
"Woe to the Usurper if we had been," said Ser Oswell.
"When King's Landing fell, Ser Jaime slew your king with a golden sword, and I wondered where you
were."
"Far away," Ser Gerold said, "or Aerys would yet sit the Iron Throne, and our false brother would burn
in seven hells."
"I came down on Storm's End to lift the siege," Ned told them, .,and the Lords Tyrell and Redwyne
dipped their banners, and all their knights bent the knee to pledge us fealty. I was certain you would be


among them."
"Our knees do not bend easily," said Ser Arthur Dayne.
"Ser Willem Darry is fled to Dragonstone, with your queen and Prince Viserys. I thought you might have
sailed with him."
"Ser Willem is a good man and true," said Ser Oswell.
"But not of the Kingsguard," Ser Gerold pointed out. "The Kingsguard does not flee."
"Then or now," said Ser Arthur. He donned his helm.
"We swore a vow," explained old Ser Gerold.
Ned's wraiths moved up beside him, with shadow swords in hand. They were seven against three.
"And now it begins," said Ser Arthur Dayne, the Sword of the Morning. He unsheathed Dawn and held
it with both hands. The blade was pale as milkglass, alive with light.
"No," Ned said with sadness in his voice. "Now it ends." As they came together in a rush of steel and
shadow, he could hear Lyanna screaming. "Eddard!" she called. A storm of rose petals blew across a
blood-streaked sky, as blue as the eyes of death.
"Lord Eddard," Lyanna called again.
"I promise," he whispered. "Lya, I promise
"Lord Eddard," a man echoed from the dark.
Groaning, Eddard Stark opened his eyes. Moonlight streamed through the tall windows of the Tower of
the Hand.
"Lord Eddard?" A shadow stood over the bed.
"How . . . how long?" The sheets were tangled, his leg splinted and plastered. A dull throb of pain shot
up his side.
"Six days and seven nights." The voice was Vayon Poole's. The steward held a cup to Ned's lips.
"Drink, my lord."
,,what . . . T'
"Only water. Maester Pycelle said you would be thirsty."
Ned drank. His lips were parched and cracked. The water tasted sweet as honey.
"The king left orders," Vayon Poole told him when the cup was empty. "He would speak with you, my
lord."
374 GLORGE R.R. MARTIN


"On the morrow," Ned said. "When I am stronger." He could not face Robert now. The dream had left
him weak as a kitten.
"My lord," Poole said, "he commanded us to send you to him the moment you opened your eyes." The
steward busied himself lighting a bedside candle.
Ned cursed softly. Robert was never known for his patience. "Tell him I'm too weak to come to him. If
he wishes to speak with me, I should be pleased to receive him here. I hope you wake him from a sound
sleep. And summon . . ." He was about to say Jory when he remembered. "Summon the captain of my
guard."
Alyn stepped into the bedchamber a few moments after the steward had taken his leave. "My lord."
"Poole tells me it has been six days," Ned said. "I must know how things stand."
"The Kingslayer is fled the city," Alyn told him. "The talk is he's ridden back to Casterly Rock to join his
father. The story of how Lady Catelyn took the Imp is on every lip. I have put on extra guards, if it
please you."
"It does," Ned assured him. "My daughters?"
"They have been with you every day, my lord. Sansa prays quietly, but Arya . . ." He hesitated. "She has
not said a word since they brought you back. She is a fierce little thing, my lord. I have never seen such
anger in a girl."
"Whatever happens," Ned said, "I want my daughters kept safe. I fear this is only the beginning."
"No harm will come to them, Lord Eddard," Alyn said. "I stake my life on that."
:,Jory and the others
J gave them over to the silent sisters, to be sent north to Winterfell. Jory would want to lie beside his
grandfather."
It would have to be his grandfather, for Jory's father was buried far to the south. Martyn Cassel had
perished with the rest. Ned had pulled the tower down afterward, and used its bloody stones to build
eight cairns upon the ridge. It was said that Rhaegar had named that place the tower of joy, but for Ned
it was a bitter memory. They had been seven against three, yet only two had lived to ride away; Eddard
Stark himself and the little crannogman, Howland Reed. He did not think it omened well that he should
dream that dream again after so many years.
"You've done well, Alyn," Ned was saying when Vayon Poole returned. The steward bowed low. "His
Grace is without, my lord, and the queen with him."
Ned pushed himself up higher, wincing as his leg trembled with pain. He had not expected Cersei to
come. It did not bode well that she had. "Send them in, and leave us. What we have to say should not go
beyond these walls." Poole withdrew quietly.


Robert had taken time to dress. He wore a black velvet doublet with the crowned stag of Baratheon
worked upon the breast in golden thread, and a golden mantle with a cloak of black and gold squares. A
flagon of wine was in his hand, his face already flushed from drink. Cersei Lannister entered behind him,
a jeweled tiara in her hair.
"Your Grace," Ned said. "Your pardons. I cannot rise."
"No matter," the king said gruffly. "Some wine? From the Arbor. A good vintage."
"A small cup," Ned said. "My head is still heavy from the milk of the poppy."
"A man in your place should count himself fortunate that his head is still on his shoulders," the queen
declared.
"Quiet, woman," Robert snapped. He brought Ned a cup of wine. "Does the leg still pain you?"
"Some," Ned said. His head was swimming, but it would not do to admit to weakness in front of the
queen.
"Pycelle swears it will heal clean." Robert frowned. "I take it you know what Catelyn has done?"
"I do." Ned took a small swallow of wine. "My lady wife is blameless, Your Grace. All she did she did
at my command."
"I am not pleased, Ned," Robert grumbled.
"By what right do you dare lay hands on my blood?" Cersei demanded. "Who do you think you are?"
"The Hand of the King," Ned told her with icy courtesy. "Charged by your own lord husband to keep
the king's peace and enforce the king's justice."
"You were the Hand," Cersei began, "but now-"
"Silence!" the king roared. "You asked him a question and he answered it." Cersei subsided, cold with
anger, and Robert turned back to Ned. "Keep the king's peace, you say. Is this how you keep my
peace, Ned? Seven men are dead . . ."
"Eight," the queen corrected. "Tregar died this morning, of the blow Lord Stark gave him."
"Abductions on the kingsroad and drunken slaughter in my streets," the king said. "I will not have it,
Ned."
"Catelyn had good reason for taking the Irnp-"
"I said, I will not have it! To hell with her reasons. You will command
her to release the dwarf at once, and you will make your peace with Jaime."
"Three of my men were butchered before my eyes, because Jaime Lannister wished to chasten me. Am I


to forget that?"
"My brother was not the cause of this quarrel," Cersei told the king. "Lord Stark was returning drunk
from a brothel. His men attacked Jaime and his guards, even as his wife attacked Tyrion on the
kingsroad."
"You know me better than that, Robert," Ned said. "Ask Lord Baelish if you doubt me. He was there."
"I've talked to Littlefinger," Robert said. "He claims he rode off to bring the gold cloaks before the
fighting began, but he admits you were returning from some whorehouse."
"Some whorehouse? Damn your eyes, Robert, I went there to have a look at your daughter! Her mother
has named her Barra. She looks like that first girl you fathered, when we were boys together in the Vale."
He watched the queen as he spoke; her face was a mask, still and pale, betraying nothing.
Robert flushed. "Barra," he grumbled. "Is that supposed to please me? Damn the girl. I thought she had
more sense."
"She cannot be more than fifteen, and a whore, and you thought she had sense?" Ned said, incredulous.
His leg was beginning to pain him sorely. It was hard to keep his temper. "The fool child is in love with
you, Robert."
The king glanced at Cersei. "This is no fit subject for the queen's ears."
"Her Grace will have no liking for anything I have to say," Ned replied. "I am told the Kingslayer has fled
the city. Give me leave to bring him back to justice."
The king swirled the wine in his cup, brooding. He took a swallow. "No," he said. "I want no more of
this. Jaime slew three of your men, and you five of his. Now it ends."
"Is that your notion of justice?" Ned flared. "If so, I am pleased that I am no longer your Hand."
The queen looked to her husband. "If any man had dared speak to a Targaryen as he has spoken to
you-"
"Do you take me for Aerys?" Robert interrupted.
"I took you for a king. Jaime and Tyrion are your own brothers, by all the laws of marriage and the
bonds we share. The Starks have driven off the one and seized the other. This man dishonors you with
every breath he takes, and yet you stand there meekly, asking if his leg pains him and would he like some
wine."
Robert's face was dark with anger. "How many times must I tell you to hold your tongue, woman?"
Cersei's face was a study in contempt. "What a jape the gods have made of us two," she said. "By all
rights, you ought to be in skirts and me in mail."
Purple with rage, the king lashed out, a vicious backhand blow to the side of the head. She stumbled
against the table and fell hard, yet Cersei Lannister did not cry out. Her slender fingers brushed her


cheek, where the pale smooth skin was already reddening. On the morrow the bruise would cover half
her face. "I shall wear this as a badge of honor," she announced.
"Wear it in silence, or I'll honor you again," Robert vowed. He shouted for a guard. Ser Meryn Trant
stepped into the room, tall and somber in his white armor. "The queen is tired. See her to her
bedchamber." The knight helped Cersei to her feet and led her out without a word.
Robert reached for the flagon and refilled his cup. "You see what she does to me, Ned." The king seated
himself, cradling his wine cup. "My loving wife. The mother of my children." The rage was gone from him
now; in his eyes Ned saw something sad and scared. "I should not have hit her. That was not . . . that
was not kingly." He stared down at his hands, as if he did not quite know what they were. "I was always
strong . . . no one could stand before me, no one. How do you fight someone if you can't hit them?"
Confused, the king shook his head. "Rhaegar . . . Rhaegar won, damn him. I killed him, Ned, I drove the
spike right through that black armor into his black heart, and he died at my feet. They made up songs
about it. Yet somehow he still won. He has Lyanna now, and I have her." The king drained his cup.
"Your Grace," Ned Stark said, "we must talk . . ."
Robert pressed his fingertips against his temples. "I am sick unto death of talk. On the morrow I'm going
to the kingswood to hunt. Whatever you have to say can wait until I return."
"If the gods are good, I shall not be here on your return. You commanded me to return to Winterfell,
remember?"
Robert stood up, grasping one of the bedposts to steady himself. "The gods are seldom good, Ned.
Here, this is yours." He pulled the heavy silver hand clasp from a pocket in the lining of his cloak and
tossed it on the bed. "Like it or not, you are my Hand, damn you. I forbid you to leave."
Ned picked up the silver clasp. He was being given no choice, it seemed. His leg throbbed, and he felt
as helpless as a child. "The Targaryen girl-"
The king groaned. "Seven hells, don't start with her again. That's done, I'll hear no more of it."
"Why would you want me as your Hand, if you refuse to listen to my counsel?"
"Why?" Robert laughed. "Why not? Someone has to rule this damnable kingdom. Put on the badge,
Ned. It suits you. And if you ever throw it in my face again, I swear to you, I'll pin the damned thing on
Jaime Lannister."
CATELYN
The eastern sky was rose and gold as the sun broke over the Vale of Arryn. Catelyn Stark watched the
light spread, her hands resting on the delicate carved stone of the balustrade outside her window. Below
her the world turned from black to indigo to green as dawn crept across fields and forests. Pale white
mists rose off Alyssa's Tears, where the ghost waters plunged over the shoulder of the mountain to begin
their long tumble down the face of the Giant's Lance. Catelyn could feel the faint touch of spray on her
face.


Alyssa Arryn had seen her husband, her brothers, and all her children slain, and yet in life she had never
shed a tear. So in death, the gods had decreed that she would know no rest until her weeping watered
the black earth of the Vale, where the men she had loved were buried. Alyssa had been dead six
thousand years now, and still no drop of the torrent had ever reached the valley floor far below. Catelyn
wondered how large a waterfall her own tears would make when she died. "Tell me the rest of it," she
said.
"The Kingslayer is massing a host at Casterly Rock," Ser Rodrik Cassel answered from the room behind
her. "Your brother writes that he has sent riders to the Rock, demanding that Lord Tywin proclaim his
intent, but he has had no answer. Edmure has commanded Lord Vance and Lord Piper to guard the pass
below the Golden Tooth. He
vows to you that he will yield no foot of Tully land without first watering it with Lannister blood."
Catelyn turned away from the sunrise. Its beauty did little to lighten her mood; it seemed cruel for a day
to dawn so fair and end so foul as this one promised to. "Edmure has sent riders and made vows," she
said, "but Edmure is not the Lord of Riverrun. What of my lord father?"
"The message made no mention of Lord Hoster, my lady." Ser Rodrik tugged at his whiskers. They had
grown in white as snow and bristly as a thornbush while he was recovering from his wounds; he looked
almost himself again.
"My father would not have given the defense of Riverrun over to Edmure unless he was very sick," she
said, worried. "I should have been woken as soon as this bird arrived."
"Your lady sister thought it better to let you sleep, Maester Colemon told me."
A should have been woken," she insisted.
"The maester tells me your sister planned to speak with you after the combat," Ser Rodrik said.
"Then she still plans to go through with this mummer's farce?" Catelyn grimaced. "The dwarf has played
her like a set of pipes, and she is too deaf to hear the tune. Whatever happens this morning, Ser Rodrik,
it is past time we took our leave. My place is at Winterfell with my sons. If you are strong enough to
travel, I shall ask Lysa for an escort to see us to Gulltown. We can take ship from there."
"Another ship?" Ser Rodrik looked a shade green, yet he managed not to shudder. "As you say, my
lady."
The old knight waited outside her door as Catelyn summoned the servants Lysa had given her. If she
spoke to her sister before the duel, perhaps she could change her mind, she thought as they dressed her.
Lysa's policies varied with her moods, and her moods changed hourly. The shy girl she had known at
Riverrun had grown into a woman who was by turns proud, fearful, cruel, dreamy, reckless, timid,
stubborn, vain, and, above all, inconstant.
When that vile turnkey of hers had come crawling to tell them that Tyrion Lannister wished to confess,
Catelyn had urged Lysa to have the dwarf brought to them privately, but no, nothing would do but that
her sister must make a show of him before half the Vale. And now this . . .


"Lannister is my prisoner," she told Ser Rodrik as they descended the tower stairs and made their way
through the Eyrie's cold white
halls. Catelyn wore plain grey wool with a silvered belt. "My sister must be reminded of that."
At the doors to Lysa's apartments, they met her uncle storming out. "Going to join the fool's festival?"
Ser Brynden snapped. "I'd tell you to slap some sense into your sister, if I thought it would do any good,
but you'd only bruise your hand."
"There was a bird from Riverrun," Catelyn began, "a letter from Edmure . . ."
"I know, child." The black fish that fastened his cloak was Brynden's only concession to ornament. "I
had to hear it from Maester Colemon. I asked your sister for leave to take a thousand seasoned men and
ride for Riverrun with all haste. Do you know what she told me? The Vale cannot spare a thousand
swords, nor even one, Uncle, she said. You are the Knight of the Gate. Your place is here." A gust of
childish laughter drifted through the open doors behind him, and her uncle glanced darkly over his
shoulder. "Well, I told her she could bloody well find herself a new Knight of the Gate. Black fish or no, I
am still a Tully. I shall leave for Riverrun by evenfall."
Catelyn could not pretend to surprise. "Alone? You know as well as I that you will never survive the high
road. Ser Rodrik and I are returning to Winterfell. Come with us, Uncle. I will give you your thousand
men. Riverrun will not fight alone."
Brynden thought a moment, then nodded a brusque agreement. "As you say. It's the long way home, but
I'm more like to get there. I'll wait for you below." He went striding off, his cloak swirling behind him.
Catelyn exchanged a look with Ser Rodrik. They went through the doors to the high, nervous sound of a
child's giggles.
Lysa's apartments opened over a small garden, a circle of dirt and grass planted with blue flowers and
ringed on all sides by tall white towers. The builders had intended it as a godswood, but the Eyrie rested
on the hard stone of the mountain, and no matter how much soil was hauled up from the Vale, they could
not get a weirwood to take root here. So the Lords of the Eyrie planted grass and scattered statuary
amidst low, flowering shrubs. It was there the two champions would meet to place their lives, and that of
Tyrion Lannister, into the hands of the gods.
Lysa, freshly scrubbed and garbed in cream velvet with a rope of sapphires and moonstones around her
milk-white neck, was holding court on the terrace overlooking the scene of the combat, surrounded by
her knights, retainers, and lords high and low. Most of them still hoped to wed her, bed her, and rule the
Vale of Arryn by her side.
From what Catelyn had seen during her stay at the Eyrie, it was a vain hope.
A wooden platform had been built to elevate Robert's chair; there the Lord of the Eyrie sat, giggling and
clapping his hands as a humpbacked puppeteer in blue-and-white motley made two wooden knights
hack and slash at each other. Pitchers of thick cream and baskets of blackberries had been set out, and


the guests were sipping a sweet orange-scented wine from engraved silver cups. A fool's festival,
Brynden had called it, and small wonder.
Across the terrace, Lysa laughed gaily at some jest of Lord Hunter's, and nibbled a blackberry from the
point of Ser Lyn Corbray's dagger. They were the suitors who stood highest in Lysa's favor . . . today, at
least. Catelyn would have been hard-pressed to say which man was more unsuitable. Eon Hunter was
even older than Jon Arryn had been, half-crippled by gout, and cursed with three quarrelsome sons, each
more grasping than the last. Ser Lyn was a different sort of folly; lean and handsome, heir to an ancient
but impoverished house, but vain, reckless, hot-tempered . . . and, it was whispered, notoriously
uninterested in the intimate charms of women.
When Lysa espied Catelyn, she welcomed her with a sisterly embrace and a moist kiss on the cheek.
"Isn't it a lovely morning? The gods are smiling on us. Do try a cup of the wine, sweet sister. Lord Hunter
was kind enough to send for it, from his own cellars."
"Thank you, no. Lysa, we must talk."
"After," her sister promised, already beginning to turn away from her.
"Now." Catelyn spoke more loudly than she'd intended. Men were turning to look. "Lysa, you cannot
mean to go ahead with this folly. Alive, the Imp has value. Dead, he is only food for crows. And if his
champion should prevail here-"
"Small chance of that, my lady," Lord Hunter assured her, patting her shoulder with a liver-spotted hand.
"Ser Vardis is a doughty fighter. He will make short work of the sellsword."
"Will he, my lord?" Catelyn said coolly. "I wonder." She had seen Bronn fight on the high road; it was no
accident that he had survived the journey while other men had died. He moved like a panther, and that
ugly sword of his seemed a part of his arm.
Lysa's suitors were gathering around them like bees round a blossom. "Women understand little of these
things," Ser Morton Waynwood said. "Ser Vardis is a knight, sweet lady. This other fellow, well, his sort
are all cowards at heart. Useful enough in a battle, with
thousands of their fellows around them, but stand them up alone and the manhood leaks right out of
them."
"Say you have the truth of it, then," Catelyn said with a courtesy that made her mouth ache. "What will
we gain by the dwarf's death? Do you imagine that Jaime will care a fig that we gave his brother a trial
before we flung him off a mountain?"
"Behead the man," Ser Lyn Corbray suggested. "When the Kingslayer receives the Imp's head, it will be
a warning to him,"
Lysa gave an impatient shake of her waist-long auburn hair. "Lord Robert wants to see him fly," she
said, as if that settled the matter. "And the Imp has only himself to blame. It was he who demanded a trial
by combat."
"Lady Lysa had no honorable way to deny him, even if she'd wished to," Lord Hunter intoned


ponderously.
Ignoring them all, Catelyn turned all her force on her sister. "I remind you, Tyrion Lannister is my
prisoner."
"And I remind you, the dwarf murdered my lord husband!" Her voice rose. "He poisoned the Hand of
the King and left my sweet baby fatherless, and now I mean to see him pay!" Whirling, her skirts
swinging around her, Lysa stalked across the terrace. Ser Lyn and Ser Morton and the other suitors
excused themselves with cool nods and trailed after her.
"Do you think he did?" Ser Rodrik asked her quietly when they were alone again. "Murder Lord Jon,
that is? The Imp still denies it, and most fiercely . . ."
"I believe the Lannisters murdered Lord Arryn," Catelyn replied, "but whether it was Tyrion, or Ser
Jaime, or the queen, or all of them together, I could not begin to say." Lysa had named Cersei in the letter
she had sent to Winterfell, but now she seemed certain that Tyrion was the killer . . . perhaps because the
dwarf was here, while the queen was safe behind the walls of the Red Keep, hundreds of leagues to the
south. Catelyn almost wished she had burned her sister's letter before reading it.
Ser Rodrik tugged at his whiskers. "Poison, well . . . that could be the dwarf s work, true enough. Or
Cersei's. It's said poison is a woman's weapon, begging your pardons, my lady. The Kingslayer, now
I have no great liking for the man, but he's not the sort. Too fond of the sight of blood on that golden
sword of his. Was it poison, my lady?"
Catelyn frowned, vaguely uneasy. "How else could they make it look a natural death?" Behind her, Lord
Robert shrieked with delight as one of the puppet knights sliced the other in half, spilling a flood of
red sawdust onto the terrace. She glanced at her nephew and sighed. "The boy is utterly without
discipline. He will never be strong enough to rule unless he is taken away from his mother for a time."
"His lord father agreed with you," said a voice at her elbow. She turned to behold Maester Colemon, a
cup of wine in his hand. "He was planning to send the boy to Dragonstone for fostering, you know . . .
oh, but I'm speaking out of turn." The apple of his throat bobbed anxiously beneath the loose maester's
chain. "I fear I've had too much of Lord Hunter's excellent wine. The prospect of bloodshed has my
nerves all a-fray . . ."
"You are mistaken, Maester," Catelyn said. "It was Casterly Rock, not Dragonstone, and those
arrangements were made after the Hand's death, without my sister's consent."
The maester's head jerked so vigorously at the end of his absurdly long neck that he looked half a
puppet himself. "No, begging your forgiveness, my lady, but it was Lord Jon who-"
A bell tolled loudly below them. High lords and serving girls alike broke off what they were doing and
moved to the balustrade. Below, two guardsmen in sky-blue cloaks led forth Tyrion Lannister. The
Eyrie's plump septon escorted him to the statue in the center of the garden, a weeping woman carved in
veined white marble, no doubt meant to be Alyssa.
"The bad little man," Lord Robert said, giggling. "Mother, can I make him fly? I want to see him fly."


"Later, my sweet baby," Lysa promised him.
"Trial first," drawled Ser Lyn Corbray, "then execution."
A moment later the two champions appeared from opposite sides of the garden. The knight was
attended by two young squires, the sellsword by the Eyrie's master-at-arms.
Ser Vardis Egen was steel from head to heel, encased in heavy plate armor over mail and padded
surcoat. Large circular rondels, enameled cream-and-blue in the moon-and-falcon sigil of House Arryn,
protected the vulnerable juncture of arm and breast. A skirt of lobstered metal covered him from waist to
midthigh, while a solid gorget encircled his throat. Falcon's wings sprouted from the temples of his helm,
and his visor was a pointed metal beak with a narrow slit for vision.
Bronn was so lightly armored he looked almost naked beside the knight. He wore only a shirt of black
oiled ringmail over boiled leather, a round steel halfhelm with a noseguard, and a mail coif. High leather
boots with steel shinguards gave some protection to his legs, and discs of black iron were sewn into the
fingers of his gloves. Yet Catelyn noted that the sellsword stood half a hand taller than his foe, with a
A CAME OF THRONES 385
longer reach ... and Bronn was fifteen years younger, if she was any judge.
They knelt in the grass beneath the weeping woman, facing each other, with Lannister between them.
The septon removed a faceted crystal sphere from the soft cloth bag at his waist. He lifted it high above
his head, and the light shattered. Rainbows danced across the Imp's face. In a high, solemn, singsong
voice, the septon asked the gods to look down and bear witness, to find the truth in this man's soul, to
grant him life and freedom if he was innocent, death if he was guilty. His voice echoed off the surrounding
towers.
When the last echo had died away, the septon lowered his crystal and made a hasty departure. Tyrion
leaned over and whispered something in Bronn's ear before the guardsmen led him away. The sellsword
rose laughing and brushed a blade of grass from his knee.
Robert Arryn, Lord of the Eyrie and Defender of the Vale, was fidgeting impatiently in his elevated chair.
"When are they going to fight?" he asked plaintively.
Ser Vardis was helped back to his feet by one of his squires. The other brought him a triangular shield
almost four feet tall, heavy oak dotted with iron studs. They strapped it to his left forearm. When Lysa's
master-at-arms offered Brorm a similar shield, the sellsword spat and waved it away. Three days growth
of coarse black beard covered his jaw and cheeks, but if he did not shave it was not for want of a razor;
the edge of his sword had the dangerous glimmer of steel that had been honed every day for hours, until it
was too sharp to touch.
Ser Vardis held out a gauntleted hand, and his squire placed a handsome double-edged longsword in his
grasp. The blade was engraved with a delicate silver tracery of a mountain sky; its pommel was a falcon's
head, its crossguard fashioned into the shape of wings. "I had that sword crafted for Jon in King's
Landing," Lysa told her guests proudly as they watched Ser Vardis try a practice cut. "He wore it
whenever he sat the Iron Throne in King Robert's place. Isn't it a lovely thing? I thought it only fitting that
our champion avenge Jon with his own blade."


The engraved silver blade was beautiful beyond a doubt, but it seemed to Catelyn that Ser Vardis might
have been more comfortable with his own sword. Yet she said nothing; she was weary of futile
arguments with her sister.
"Make them fight!" Lord Robert called out.
Ser Vardis faced the Lord of the Eyrie and lifted his sword in salute. "For the Eyrie and the Vale!"
Tyrion Lannister had been seated on a balcony across the garden, flanked by his guards. It was to him
that Bronn turned with a cursory salute.
"They await your command," Lady Lysa said to her lord son.
"Fight!" the boy screamed, his arms trembling as they clutched at his chair.
Ser Vardis swiveled, bringing up his heavy shield. Bronn turned to face him. Their swords rang together,
once, twice, a testing. The sellsword backed off a step. The knight came after, holding his shield before
him. He tried a slash, but Bronn jerked back, just out of reach, and the silver blade cut only air. Bronn
circled to his right. Ser Vardis turned to follow, keeping his shield between them. The knight pressed
forward, placing each foot carefully on the uneven ground. The sellsword gave way, a faint smile playing
over his lips. Ser Vardis attacked, slashing, but Bronn leapt away from him, hopping lightly over a low,
moss-covered stone. Now the sellsword circled left, away from the shield, toward the knight's
unprotected side. Ser Vardis tried a hack at his legs, but he did not have the reach. Bronn danced farther
to his left. Ser Vardis turned in place.
"The man is craven," Lord Hunter declared. "Stand and fight, coward! " Other voices echoed the
sentiment.
Catelyn looked to Ser Rodrik. Her master-at-arms gave a curt shake of his head. "He wants to make
Ser Vardis chase him. The weight of armor and shield will tire even the strongest man."
She had seen men practice at their swordplay near every day of her life, had viewed half a hundred
tourneys in her time, but this was something different and deadlier: a dance where the smallest misstep
meant death. And as she watched, the memory of another duel in another time came back to Catelyn
Stark, as vivid as if it had been yesterday.
They met in the lower bailey of Riverrun. When Brandon saw that Petyr wore only helm and breastplate
and mail, he took off most of his armor. Petyr had begged her for a favor he might wear, but she had
turned him away. Her lord father promised her to Brandon Stark, and so it was to him that she gave her
token, a pale blue handscarf she had embroidered with the leaping trout of Riverrun. As she pressed it
into his hand, she pleaded with him. "He is only a foolish boy, but I have loved him like a brother. It
would grieve me to see him die." And her betrothed looked at her with the cool grey eyes of a Stark and
promised to spare the boy who loved her.
That fight was over almost as soon as it began. Brandon was a man grown, and he drove Littlefinger all
the way across the bailey and down


the water stair, raining steel on him with every step, until the boy was staggering and bleeding from a
dozen wounds. "Yield!" he called, more than once, but Petyr would only shake his head and fight on,
grimly. When the river was lapping at their ankles, Brandon finally ended it, with a brutal backhand cut
that bit through Petyr's rings and leather into the soft flesh below the ribs, so deep that Catelyn was
certain that the wound was mortal. He looked at her as he fell and murmured "Cat" as the bright blood
came flowing out between his mailed fingers. She thought she had forgotten that.
That was the last time she had seen his face . . . until the day she was brought before him in King's
Landing.
A fortnight passed before Littlefinger was strong enough to leave Riverrun, but her lord father forbade
her to visit him in the tower where he lay abed. Lysa helped their maester nurse him; she had been softer
and shyer in those days. Edmure had called on him as well, but Petyr had sent him away. Her brother
had acted as Brandon's squire at the duel, and Littlefinger would not forgive that. As soon as he was
strong enough to be moved, Lord Hoster Tully sent Petyr Baelish away in a closed litter, to finish his
healing on the Fingers, upon the windswept jut of rock where he'd been born.
The ringing clash of steel on steel jarred Catelyn back to the present. Ser Vardis was coming hard at
Bronn, driving into him with shield and sword. The sellsword scrambled backward, checking each blow,
stepping lithely over rock and root, his eyes never leaving his foe. He was quicker, Catelyn saw; the
knight's silvered sword never came near to touching him, but his own ugly grey blade hacked a notch
from Ser Vardis's shoulder plate.
The brief flurry of fighting ended as swiftly as it had begun when Bronn sidestepped and slid behind the
statue of the weeping woman. Ser Vardis lunged at where he had been, striking a spark off the pate
marble of Alyssa's thigh.
"They're not fighting good, Mother," the Lord of the Eyrie complained. "I want them to fight."
"They will, sweet baby," his mother soothed him. "The sellsword can't run all day."
Some of the lords on Lysa's terrace were making wry jests as they refilled their wine cups, but across
the garden, Tyrion Lannister's mismatched eyes watched the champions dance as if there were nothing
else in the world.
Bronn came out from behind the statue hard and fast, still moving left, aiming a two-handed cut at the
knight's unshielded right side. Ser Vardis blocked, but clumsily, and the sellsword's blade flashed upward
at his head. Metal rang, and a falcon's wing collapsed with a crunch. Ser Vardis took a half step back to
brace himself, raised his shield. Oak chips flew as Bronn's sword hacked at the wooden wall. The
sellsword stepped left again, away from the shield, and caught Ser Vardis across the stomach, the razor
edge of his blade leaving a bright gash when it bit into the knight's plate.
Ser Vardis drove forward off his back foot, his own silver blade descending in a savage arc. Bronn
slammed it aside and danced away. The knight crashed into the weeping woman, rocking her on her
plinth. Staggered, he stepped backward, his head turning this way and that as he searched for his foe.
The slit visor of his helm narrowed his vision.
"Behind you, ser!" Lord Hunter shouted, too late. Bronn brought his sword down with both hands,


catching Ser Vardis in the elbow of his sword arm. The thin lobstered metal that protected the joint
crunched. The knight grunted, turning, wrenching his weapon up. This time Bronn stood his ground. The
swords flew at each other, and their steel song filled the garden and rang off the white towers of the
Eyrie.
"Ser Vardis is hurt," Ser Rodrik said, his voice grave.
Catelyn did not need to be told; she had eyes, she could see the bright finger of blood running along the
knight's forearm, the wetness inside the elbow joint. Every parry was a little slower and a little lower than
the one before. Ser Vardis turned his side to his foe, trying to use his shield to block instead, but Bronn
slid around him, quick as a cat. The sellsword seemed to be getting stronger. His cuts were leaving their
marks now. Deep shiny gashes gleamed all over the knight's armor, on his right thigh, his beaked visor,
crossing on his breastplate, a long one along the front of his gorget. The moon-and-falcon rondel over
Ser Vardis's right arm was sheared clean in half, hanging by its strap. They could hear his labored breath,
rattling through the air holes in his visor.
Blind with arrogance as they were, even the knights and lords of the Vale could see what was happening
below them, yet her sister could not. "Enough, Ser Vardis!" Lady Lysa called down. "Finish him now, my
baby is growing tired."
And it must be said of Ser Vardis Egen that he was true to his lady's command, even to the last. One
moment he was reeling backward, half-crouched behind his scarred shield; the next he charged. The
sudden bull rush caught Bronn off balance. Ser Vardis crashed into him and slammed the lip of his shield
into the sellsword's face. Almost, almost, Bronn lost his feet . . . he staggered back, tripped over a rock,
and caught hold of the weeping woman to keep his balance.
Throwing aside his shield, Ser Vardis lurched after him, using both hands to raise his sword. His right
arm was blood from elbow to fingers now, yet his last desperate blow would have opened Bronn from
neck to navel . . . if the sellsword had stood to receive it.
But Bronn jerked back. Jon Arryn's beautiful engraved silver sword glanced off the marble elbow of the
weeping woman and snapped clean a third of the way up the blade. Bronn put his shoulder into the
statue's back. The weathered likeness of Alyssa Arryn tottered and fell with a great crash, and Ser
Vardis Egen went down beneath her.
Bronn was on him in a heartbeat, kicking what was left of his shattered rondel aside to expose the weak
spot between arm and breastplate. Ser Vardis was lying on his side, pinned beneath the broken torso of
the weeping woman. Catelyn heard the knight groan as the sellsword lifted his blade with both hands and
drove it down and in with all his weight behind it, under the arm and through the ribs. Ser Vardis Egen
shuddered and lay still.
Silence hung over the Eyrie. Bronn yanked off his halfhelm and let it fall to the grass. His lip was
smashed and bloody where the shield had caught him, and his coal-black hair was soaked with sweat.
He spit out a broken tooth.
"Is it over, Mother?" the Lord of the Eyrie asked.
No, Catelyn wanted to tell him, it's only now beginning.


"Yes," Lysa said glumly, her voice as cold and dead as the captain of her guard.
"Can I make the little man fly now?"
Across the garden, Tyrion Lannister got to his feet. "Not this little man," he said. "This little man is going
down in the turnip hoist, thank you very much."
"You presume-" Lysa began.
"I presume that House Arryn remembers its own words," the Imp said. "As High as Honor. "
"You promised I could make him fly," the Lord of the Eyrie screamed at his mother. He began to shake.
Lady Lysa's face was flushed with fury. "The gods have seen fit to proclaim him innocent, child. We
have no choice but to free him." She lifted her voice. "Guards. Take my lord of Lannister and his . . .
creature here out of my sight. Escort them to the Bloody Gate and set them free. See that they have
horses and supplies sufficient to reach the Trident, and make certain all their goods and weapons are
returned to them. They shall need them on the high road."
"The high road," Tyrion Lannister said. Lysa allowed herself a faint, satisfied smile. It was another sort of
death sentence, Catelyn realized. Tyrion Lannister must know that as well. Yet the dwarf favored Lady
Arryn with a mocking bow. "As you command, my lady," he said. "I believe we know the way."
JON
You are as hopeless as any boys I have ever trained," Ser Alliser Thorne announced when they had all
assembled in the yard. "Your hands were made for manure shovels, not for swords, and if it were up to
me, the lot of you would be set to herding swine. But last night I was told that Gueren is marching five
new boys up the kingsroad. One or two may even be worth the price of piss. To make room for them, I
have decided to pass eight of you on to the Lord Commander to do with as he will." He called out the
names one by one. "Toad. Stone Head. Aurochs. Lover. Pimple. Monkey. Ser Loon." Last, he looked
at Jon. "And the Bastard."
Pyp let fly a whoop and thrust his sword into the air. Ser Alliser fixed him with a reptile stare. "They will
call you men of Night's Watch now, but you are bigger fools than the Mummer's Monkey here if you
believe that. You are boys still, green and stinking of summer, and when the winter comes you will die
like flies." And with that, Ser Alliser Thorne took his leave of them.
The other boys gathered round the eight who had been named, laughing and cursing and offering
congratulations. Halder smacked Toad on the butt with the flat of his sword and shouted, "Toad, of the
Night's Watch!" Yelling that a black brother needed a horse, Pyp leapt onto Grenn's shoulders, and they
tumbled to the ground, rolling and punching and hooting. Dareon dashed inside the armory and returned
with a skin of sour red. As they passed the wine from hand to hand, grinning like fools, Jon noticed
Samwell Tarly standing by himself beneath a bare dead tree in the corner of the yard. Jon offered him the


skin. "A swallow of wine?"
Sam shook his head. "No thank you, Jon."
"Are you well?"
"Very well, truly," the fat boy lied. "I am so happy for you all." His round face quivered as he forced a
smile. "You will be First Ranger someday, just as your uncle was."
"Is, " Jon corrected. He would not accept that Benjen Stark was dead. Before he could say more,
Haider cried, "Here, you planning to drink that all yourself?" Pyp snatched the skin from his hand and
danced away, laughing. While Grenn seized his arm, Pyp gave the skin a squeeze, and a thin stream of
red squirted Jon in the face. Haider howled in protest at the waste of good wine. Jon sputtered and
struggled. Matthar and Jeren climbed the wall and began pelting them all with snowballs.
By the time he wrenched free, with snow in his hair and wine stains on his surcoat, Samwell Tarly had
gone.
That night, Three-Finger Hobb cooked the boys a special meal to mark the occasion. When Jon arrived
at the common hall, the Lord Steward himself led him to the bench near the fire. The older men clapped
him on the arm in passing. The eight soon-to-be brothers feasted on rack of lamb baked in a crust of
garlic and herbs, garnished with sprigs of mint, and surrounded by mashed yellow turnips swimming in
butter. "From the Lord Commander's own table," Bowen Marsh told them. There were salads of spinach
and chickpeas and turnip greens, and afterward bowls of iced blueberries and sweet cream.
"Do you think they'll keep us together?" Pyp wondered as they gorged themselves happily.
Toad made a face. "I hope not. I'm sick of looking at those ears of yours."
"Ho," said Pyp. "Listen to the crow call the raven black. You're certain to be a ranger, Toad. They'll
want you as far from the castle as they can. If Mance Rayder attacks, lift your visor and show your face,
and he'll run off screaming."
Everyone laughed but Grenn. "I hope I'm a ranger."
"You and everyone else," said Matthar. Every man who wore the black walked the Wall, and every man
was expected to take up steel in its defense, but the rangers were the true fighting heart of the Night's
Watch. It was they who dared ride beyond the Wall, sweeping through
the haunted forest and the icy mountain heights west of the Shadow Tower, fighting wildlings and giants
and monstrous snow bears.
"Not everyone," said Halder. "It's the builders for me. What use would rangers be if the Wall fell down?"
The order of builders provided the masons and carpenters to repair keeps and towers, the miners to dig
tunnels and crush stone for roads and footpaths, the woodsmen to clear away new growth wherever the
forest pressed too close to the Wall. Once, it was said, they had quarried immense blocks of ice from
frozen lakes deep in the haunted forest, dragging them south on sledges so the Wall might be raised ever
higher. Those days were centuries gone, however; now, it was all they could do to ride the Wall from


Eastwatch to the Shadow Tower, watching for cracks or signs of melt and making what repairs they
could.
"The Old Bear's no fool," Dareon observed. "You're certain to be a builder, and Jon's certain to be a
ranger. He's the best sword and the best rider among us, and his uncle was the First before he . . ." His
voice trailed off awkwardly as he realized what he had almost said.
"Benjen Stark is still First Ranger," Jon Snow told him, toying with his bowl of blueberries. The rest
might have given up all hope of his uncle's safe return, but not him. He pushed away the berries, scarcely
touched, and rose from the bench.
"Aren't you going to eat those?" Toad asked.
"They're yours." Jon had hardly tasted Hobb's great feast. "I could not eat another bite." He took his
cloak from its hook near the door and shouldered his way out.
Pyp followed him. "Jon, what is it?"
"Sam," he admitted. "He was not at table tonight."
"It's not like him to miss a meal," Pyp said thoughtfully. "Do you suppose he's taken ill?"
"He's frightened. We're leaving him." He remembered the day he had left Winterfell, all the bittersweet
farewells; Bran lying broken, Robb with snow in his hair, Arya raining kisses on him after he'd given her
Needle. "Once we say our words, we'll all have duties to attend to. Some of us may be sent away, to
Eastwatch or the Shadow Tower. Sam will remain in training, with the likes of Rast and Cuger and these
new boys who are coming up the kingsroad. Gods only know what they'll be like, but you can bet Ser
Alliser will send them against him, first chance he gets."
Pyp made a grimace. "You did all you could."
"All we could wasn't enough," Jon said.
A deep restlessness was on him as he went back to Hardin's Tower for Ghost. The direwolf walked
beside him to the stables. Some of the
more skittish horses kicked at their stalls and laid back their ears as they entered. Jon saddled his mare,
mounted, and rode out from Castle Black, south across the moonlit night. Ghost raced ahead of him,
flying over the ground, gone in the blink of an eye. Jon let him go. A wolf needed to hunt.
He had no destination in mind. He wanted only to ride. He followed the creek for a time, listening to the
icy trickle of water over rock, then cut across the fields to the kingsroad. It stretched out before him,
narrow and stony and pocked with weeds, a road of no particular promise, yet the sight of it filled Jon
Snow with a vast longing. Winterfell was down that road, and beyond it Riverrun and King's Landing and
the Eyrie and so many other places; Casterly Rock, the Isles of Faces, the red mountains of Dorne, the
hundred islands of Braavos in the sea, the smoking ruins of old Valyria. All the places that Jon would
never see. The world was down that road . . . and he was here.
Once he swore his vow, the Wall would be his home until he was old as Maester Aemon. "I have not


sworn yet," he muttered. He was no outlaw, bound to take the black or pay the penalty for his crimes.
He had come here freely, and he might leave freely . . . until he said the words. He need only ride on, and
he could leave it all behind. By the time the moon was full again, he would be back in Winterfell with his
brothers.
Your half brothers, a voice inside reminded him. And Lady Stark, who will not welcome you. There was
no place for him in Winterfell, no place in King's Landing either. Even his own mother had not had a
place for him. The thought of her made him sad. He wondered who she had been, what she had looked
like, why his father had left her. Because she was a whore or an adulteress, fool. Something dark and
dishonorable, or else why was Lord Eddard too ashamed to speak of her?
Jon Snow turned away from the kingsroad to look behind him. The fires of Castle Black were hidden
behind a hill, but the Wall was there, pale beneath the moon, vast and cold, running from horizon to
horizon.
He wheeled his horse around and started for home.
Ghost returned as he crested a rise and saw the distant glow of lamplight from the Lord Commander's
Tower. The direwolf s muzzle was red with blood as he trotted beside the horse. Jon found himself
thinking of Samwell Tarly again on the ride back. By the time he reached the stables, he knew what he
must do.
Maester Aemon's apartments were in a stout wooden keep below the rookery. Aged and frail, the
maester shared his chambers with two
of the younger stewards, who tended to his needs and helped him in his duties. The brothers joked that
he had been given the two ugliest men in the Night's Watch; being blind, he was spared having to look at
them. Clydas was short, bald, and chinless, with small pink eyes like a mole. Chett had a wen on his neck
the size of a pigeon's egg, and a face red with boils and pimples. Perhaps that was why he always
seemed so angry.
It was Chett who answered Jon's knock. "I need to speak to Maester Aemon," Jon told him.
"The maester is abed, as you should be. Come back on the morrow and maybe he'll see you." He began
to shut the door.
Jon jammed it open with his boot. "I need to speak to him now. The morning will be too late."
Chett scowled. "The maester is not accustomed to being woken in the night. Do you know how old he
is?"
"Old enough to treat visitors with more courtesy than you," Jon said. "Give him my pardons. I would not
disturb his rest if it were not important."
"And if I refuse?"
Jon had his boot wedged solidly in the door. "I can stand here all night if I must."
The black brother made a disgusted noise and opened the door to admit him. "Wait in the library.


There's wood. Start a fire. I won't have the maester catching a chill on account of you."
Jon had the logs crackling merrily by the time Chett led in Maester Aemon. The old man was clad in his
bed robe, but around his throat was the chain collar of his order. A maester did not remove it even to
sleep. "The chair beside the fire would be pleasant," he said when he felt the warmth on his face. When
he was settled comfortably, Chett covered his legs with a fur and went to stand by the door.
"I am sorry to have woken you, Maester," Jon Snow said.
"You did not wake me," Maester Aemon replied. "I find I need less sleep as I grow older, and I am
grown very old. I often spend half the night with ghosts, remembering times fifty years past as if they were
yesterday. The mystery of a midnight visitor is a welcome diversion. So tell me, Jon Snow, why have you
come calling at this strange hour?"
"To ask that Samwell Tarly be taken from training and accepted as a brother of the Night's Watch."
"This is no concern of Maester Aemon," Chett complained.
"Our Lord Commander has given the training of recruits into the hands of Ser Alliser Thorne," the
maester said gently. "Only he may
say when a boy is ready to swear his vow, as you surely know. Why then come to me?"
"The Lord Commander listens to you," Jon told him. "And the wounded and the sick of the Night's
Watch are in your charge."
"And is your friend Samwell wounded or sick?"
"He will be," Jon promised, "unless you help."
He told them all of it, even the part where he'd set Ghost at Rast's throat. Maester Aemon listened
silently, blind eyes fixed on the fire, but Chett's face darkened with each word. "Without us to keep him
safe, Sam will have no chance," Jon finished. "He's hopeless with a sword. My sister Arya could tear him
apart, and she's not yet ten. If Ser Alliser makes him fight, it's only a matter of time before he's hurt or
killed."
Chett could stand no more. "I've seen this fat boy in the common hall," he said. "He is a pig, and a
hopeless craven as well, if what you say is true."
"Maybe it is so," Maester Aemon said. "Tell me, Chett, what would you have us do with such a boy?"
"Leave him where he is," Chett said. "The Wall is no place for the weak. Let him train until he is ready,
no matter how many years that takes. Ser Alliser shall make a man of him or kill him, as the gods will."
"That's stupid, " Jon said. He took a deep breath to gather his thoughts. "I remember once I asked
Maester Luwin why he wore a chain around his throat."
Maester Aemon touched his own collar lightly, his bony, wrinkled finger stroking the heavy metal links.
"Go on."


"He told me that a maester's collar is made of chain to remind him that he is sworn to serve," Jon said,
remembering. "I asked why each link was a different metal. A silver chain would look much finer with his
grey robes, I said. Maester Luwin laughed. A maester forges his chain with study, he told me. The
different metals are each a different kind of learning, gold for the study of money and accounts, silver for
healing, iron for warcraft. And he said there were other meanings as well. The collar is supposed to
remind a maester of the realm he serves, isn't that so? Lords are gold and knights steel, but two links
can't make a chain. You also need silver and iron and lead, tin and copper and bronze and all the rest,
and those are farmers and smiths and merchants and the like. A chain needs all sorts of metals, and a
land needs all sorts of people."
Maester Aemon smiled. "And so?"
"The Night's Watch needs all sorts too. Why else have rangers and stewards and builders? Lord Randyll
couldn't make Sam a warrior,
and Ser Alliser won't either. You can't hammer tin into iron, no matter how hard you beat it, but that
doesn't mean tin is useless. Why shouldn't Sam be a steward?"
Chett gave an angry scowl. "I'm a steward. You think it's easy work, fit for cowards? The order of
stewards keeps the Watch alive. We hunt and farm, tend the horses, milk the cows, gather firewood,
cook the meals. Who do you think makes your clothing? Who brings up supplies from the south? The
stewards."
Maester Aemon was gentler. "Is your friend a hunter?"
"He hates hunting," Jon had to admit.
"Can he plow a field?" the maester asked. "Can he drive a wagon or sail a ship? Could he butcher a
cow?"
"No.,,
Chett gave a nasty laugh. "I've seen what happens to soft lordlings when they're put to work. Set them to
churning butter and their hands blister and bleed. Give them an axe to split logs, and they cut off their
own foot."
"I know one thing Sam could do better than anyone."
"Yes?" Maester Aemon prompted.
Jon glanced warily at Chett, standing beside the door, his boils red and angry. "He could help you," he
said quickly. "He can do sums, and he knows how to read and write. I know Chett can't read, and
Clydas has weak eyes. Sam read every book in his father's library. He'd be good with the ravens too.
Animals seem to like him. Ghost took to him straight off. There's a lot he could do, besides fighting. The
Night's Watch needs every man. Why kill one, to no end? Make use of him instead."
Maester Aemon closed his eyes, and for a brief moment Jon was afraid that he had gone to sleep.
Finally he said, "Maester Luwin taught you well, Jon Snow. Your mind is as deft as your blade, it would


seem."
"Does that mean . . . T'
"It means I shall think on what you have said," the maester told him firmly. "And now, I believe I am
ready to sleep. Chett, show our young brother to the door."
TYRION
They had taken shelter beneath a copse of aspens just off the high road. Tyrion was gathering
deadwood while their horses took water from a mountain stream. He stooped to pick up a splintered
branch and examined it critically. "Will this do? I am not practiced at starting fires. Morrec did that for
me."
"Afire?" Bronn said, spitting. "Are you so hungry to die, dwarf? Or have you taken leave of your senses?
A fire will bring the clansmen down on us from miles around. I mean to survive this journey, Lannister."
"And how do you hope to do that?" Tyrion asked. He tucked the branch under his arm and poked
around through the sparse undergrowth, looking for more. His back ached from the effort of bending;
they had been riding since daybreak, when a stone-faced Ser Lyn Corbray had ushered them through the
Bloody Gate and commanded them never to return.
"We have no chance of fighting our way back," Bronn said, "but two can cover more ground than ten,
and attract less notice. The fewer days we spend in these mountains, the more like we are to reach the
riverlands. Ride hard and fast, I say. Travel by night and hole up by day, avoid the road where we can,
make no noise and light no fires."
Tyrion Lannister sighed. "A splendid plan, Bronn. Try it, as you like . . . and forgive me if I do not linger
to bury you."
"You think to outlive me, dwarf?" The sellsword grinned. He had a dark gap in his smile where the edge
of Ser Vardis Egen's shield had cracked a tooth in half.
Tyrion shrugged. "Riding hard and fast by night is a sure way to tumble down a mountain and crack your
skull. I prefer to make my crossing slow and easy. I know you love the taste of horse, Bronn, but if our
mounts die under us this time, we'll be trying to saddle shadowcats . . . and if truth be told, I think the
clans will find us no matter what we do. Their eyes are all around us." He swept a gloved hand over the
high, wind-carved crags that surrounded them.
Bronn grimaced. "Then we're dead men, Lannister."
"If so, I prefer to die comfortable," Tyrion replied. "We need a fire. The nights are cold up here, and hot
food will warm our bellies and lift our spirits. Do you suppose there's any game to be had? Lady Lysa
has kindly provided us with a veritable feast of salt beef, hard cheese, and stale bread, but I would hate
to break a tooth so far from the nearest maester."
"I can find meat." Beneath a fall of black hair, Bronn's dark eyes regarded Tyrion suspiciously. "I should


leave you here with your fool's fire. If I took your horse, I'd have twice the chance to make it through.
What would you do then, dwarf?"
"Die, most like." Tyrion stooped to get another stick.
"You don't think I'd do it?"
"You'd do it in an instant, if it meant your life. You were quick enough to silence your friend Chiggen
when he caught that arrow in his belly." Bronn had yanked back the man's head by the hair and driven
the point of his dirk in under the ear, and afterward told Catelyn Stark that the other sellsword had died
of his wound.
"He was good as dead," Bronn said, "and his moaning was bringing them down on us. Chiggen would
have done the same for me . . . and he was no friend, only a man I rode with. Make no mistake, dwarf. I
fought for you, but I do not love you."
"It was your blade I needed," Tyrion said, "not your love." He dumped his armful of wood on the
ground.
Bronn grinned. "You're bold as any sellsword, I'll give you that. How did you know I'd take your part?"
"Know?" Tyrion squatted awkwardly on his stunted legs to build the fire. "I tossed the dice. Back at the
inn, you and Chiggen helped take me captive. Why? The others saw it as their duty, for the honor of the
lords they served, but not you two. You had no lord, no duty, and precious little honor, so why trouble to
involve yourselves?" He took out his knife and whittled some thin strips of bark off one of the sticks
he'd gathered, to serve as kindling. "Well, why do sellswords do anything? For gold. You were thinking
Lady Catelyn would reward you for your help, perhaps even take you into her service. Here, that should
do, I hope. Do you have a flint?"
Bronn slid two fingers into the pouch at his belt and tossed down a flint. Tyrion caught it in the air.
"My thanks," he said. "The thing is, you did not know the Starks. Lord Eddard is a proud, honorable,
and honest man, and his lady wife is worse. Oh, no doubt she would have found a coin or two for you
when this was all over, and pressed it in your hand with a polite word and a look of distaste, but that's
the most you could have hoped for. The Starks look for courage and loyalty and honor in the men they
choose to serve them, and if truth be told, you and Chiggen were lowborn scum." Tyrion struck the flint
against his dagger, trying for a spark. Nothing.
Bronn snorted. "You have a bold tongue, little man. One day someone is like to cut it out and make you
eat it."
"Everyone tells me that." Tyrion glanced up at the sellsword. "Did I offend you? My pardons . . . but you
are scum, Bronn, make no mistake. Duty, honor, friendship, what's that to you? No, don't trouble
yourself, we both know the answer. Still, you're not stupid. Once we reached the Vale, Lady Stark had
no more need of you . . . but I did, and the one thing the Lannisters have never lacked for is gold. When
the moment came to toss the dice, I was counting on your being smart enough to know where your best
interest lay. Happily for me, you did." He slammed stone and steel together again, fruitlessly.


"Here," said Bronn, squatting, "I'll do it." He took the knife and flint from Tyrion's hands and struck
sparks on his first try. A curl of bark began to smolder.
"Well done," Tyrion said. "Scum you may be, but you're undeniably useful, and with a sword in your
hand you're almost as good as my brother Jaime. What do you want, Bronn? Gold? Land? Women?
Keep me alive, and you'll have it."
Bronn blew gently on the fire, and the flames leapt up higher. "And if you die?"
"Why then, I'll have one mourner whose grief is sincere," Tyrion said, grinning. "The gold ends when I
do."
The fire was blazing up nicely. Bronn stood, tucked the flint back into his pouch, and tossed Tyrion his
dagger. "Fair enough," he said. "My sword's yours, then . . . but don't go looking for me to bend the knee
and m7ord you every time you take a shit. I'm no man's toady."
"Nor any man's friend," Tyrion said. "I've no doubt you'd betray me
as quick as you did Lady Stark, if you saw a profit in it. If the day ever comes when you're tempted to
sell me out, remember this, Bronn-I'll match their price, whatever it is. I like living. And now, do you
think you could do something about finding us some supper?"
"Take care of the horses," Bronn said, unsheathing the long dirk he wore at his hip. He strode into the
trees.
An hour later the horses had been rubbed down and fed, the fire was crackling away merrily, and a
haunch of a young goat was turning above the flames, spitting and hissing. "All we lack now is some good
wine to wash down our kid," Tyrion said.
"That, a woman, and another dozen swords," Bronn said. He sat cross-legged beside the fire, honing the
edge of his longsword with an oilstone. There was something strangely reassuring about the rasping
sound it made when he drew it down the steel. "It will be full dark soon," the sellsword pointed out. "I'll
take first watch . . . for all the good it will do us. It might be kinder to let them kill us in our sleep."
"Oh, I imagine they'll be here long before it comes to sleep." The smell of the roasting meat made
Tyrion's mouth water.
Bronn watched him across the fire. "You have a plan," he said flatly, with a scrape of steel on stone.
"A hope, call it," Tyrion said. "Another toss of the dice."
"With our lives as the stake?"
Tyrion shrugged. "What choice do we have?" He leaned over the fire and sawed a thin slice of meat
from the kid. "Ahhhh," he sighed happily as he chewed. Grease ran down his chin. "A bit tougher than I'd
like, and in want of spicing, but I'll not complain too loudly. If I were back at the Eyrie, I'd be dancing on
a precipice in hopes of a boiled bean."
"And yet you gave the turnkey a purse of gold," Bronn said.


"A Lannister always pays his debts."
Even Mord had scarcely believed it when Tyrion tossed him the leather purse. The gaoler's eyes had
gone big as boiled eggs as he yanked open- the drawstring and beheld the glint of gold. "I kept the
silver," Tyrion had told him with a crooked smile, "but you were promised the gold, and there it is." It
was more than a man like Mord could hope to earn in a lifetime of abusing prisoners. "And remember
what I said, this is only a taste. If you ever grow tired of Lady Arryn's service, present yourself at
Casterly Rock, and I'll pay you the rest of what I owe you." With golden dragons spilling out of both
hands, Mord had fallen to his knees and promised that he would do just that.
Bronn yanked out his dirk and pulled the meat from the fire. He began to carve thick chunks of charred
meat off the bone as Tyrion
402 GEORGE R.R. MARUN
hollowed out two heels of stale bread to serve as trenchers. "If we do reach the river, what will you do
then?" the sellsword asked as he cut.
"Oh, a whore and a featherbed and a flagon of wine, for a start." Tyrion held out his trencher, and Bronn
filled it with meat. "And then to Casterly Rock or King's Landing, I think. I have some questions that
want answering, concerning a certain dagger."
The sellsword chewed and swallowed. "So you were telling it true? It was not your knife?"
Tyrion smiled thinly. "Do I look a liar to you?"
By the time their bellies were full, the stars had come out and a halfmoon was rising over the mountains.
Tyrion spread his shadowskin cloak on the ground and stretched out with his saddle for a pillow. "Our
friends are taking their sweet time."
"If I were them, I'd fear a trap," Bronn said. "Why else would we be so open, if not to lure them in?"
Tyrion chuckled. "Then we ought to sing and send them fleeing in terror." He began to whistle a tune.
"You're mad, dwarf," Bronn said as he cleaned the grease out from under his nails with his dirk.
"Where's your love of music, Bronn?"
"If it was music you wanted, you should have gotten the singer to champion you."
Tyrion grinned. "That would have been amusing. I can just see him fending off Ser Vardis with his
woodharp." He resumed his whistling. "Do you know this song?" he asked.
"You hear it here and there, in inns and whorehouses."
"Myrish. 'The Seasons of My Love.' Sweet and sad, if you understand the words. The first girl I ever
bedded used to sing it, and I've never been able to put it out of my head." Tyrion gazed up at the sky. It
was a clear cold night and the stars shone down upon the mountains as bright and merciless as truth. "I
met her on a night like this," he heard himself saying. "Jaime and I were riding back from Lannisport when
we heard a scream, and she came running out into the road with two men dogging her heels, shouting


threats. My brother unsheathed his sword and went after them, while I dismounted to protect the girl.
She was scarcely a year older than I was, dark-haired, slender, with a face that would break your heart.
It certainly broke mine. Lowborn, halfstarved, unwashed . . . yet lovely. They'd torn the rags she was
wearing half off her back, so I wrapped her in my cloak while Jaime chased the men into the woods. By
the time he came trotting back, I'd gotten a name out of her, and a story. She was a crofter's child,
orphaned
when her father died of fever, on her way to ... well, nowhere, really.
"Jaime was all in a lather to hunt down the men. It was not often outlaws dared prey on travelers so near
to Casterly Rock, and he took it as an insult. The girl was too frightened to send off by herself, though, so
I offered to take her to the closest inn and feed her while my brother rode back to the Rock for help.
"She was hungrier than I would have believed. We finished two whole chickens and part of a third, and
drank a flagon of wine, talking. I was only thirteen, and the wine went to my head, I fear. The next thing I
knew, I was sharing her bed. If she was shy, I was shyer. I'll never know where I found the courage.
When I broke her maidenhead, she wept, but afterward she kissed me and sang her little song, and by
morning I was in love."
"You?" Bronn's voice was amused.
"Absurd, isn't it?" Tyrion began to whistle the song again. "I married her," he finally admitted.
"A Lannister of Casterly Rock wed to a crofter's daughter," Bronn said. "How did you manage that?"
"Oh, you'd be astonished at what a boy can make of a few lies, fifty pieces of silver, and a drunken
septon. I dared not bring my bride home to Casterly Rock, so I set her up in a cottage of her own, and
for a fortnight we played at being man and wife. And then the septon sobered and confessed all to my
lord father." Tyrion was surprised at how desolate it made him feel to say it, even after all these years.
Perhaps he was just tired. "That was the end of my marriage." He sat up and stared at the dying fire,
blinking at the light.
"He sent the girl away?"
"He did better than that," Tyrion said. "First he made my brother tell me the truth. The girl was a whore,
you see. Jaime arranged the whole affair, the road, the outlaws, all of it. He thought it was time I had a
woman. He paid double for a maiden, knowing it would be my first time.
"After Jaime had made his confession, to drive home the lesson, Lord Tywin brought my wife in and
gave her to his guards. They paid her fair enough. A silver for each man, how many whores command
that high a price? He sat me down in the corner of the barracks and bade me watch, and at the end she
had so many silvers the coins were slipping through her fingers and rolling on the floor, she . . ." The
smoke was stinging his eyes. Tyrion cleared his throat and turned away from the fire, to gaze out into
darkness. "Lord Tywin had me go last,"
he said in a quiet voice. "And he gave me a gold coin to pay her, because I was a Lannister, and worth
more."


After a time he heard the noise again, the rasp of steel on stone as Bronn sharpened his sword. "Thirteen
or thirty or three, I would have killed the man who did that to me."
Tyrion swung around to face him. "You may get that chance one day. Remember what I told you. A
Lannister always pays his debts." He yawned. "I think I will try and sleep. Wake me if we're about to
die."
He rolled himself up in the shadowskin and shut his eyes. The ground was stony and cold, but after a
time Tyrion Lannister did sleep. He dreamt of the sky cell. This time he was the gaoler, not the prisoner,
big, with a strap in his hand, and he was hitting his father, driving him back, toward the abyss . . .
"Tyrion. " Bronn's warning was low and urgent.
Tyrion was awake in the blink of an eye. The fire had burned down to embers, and the shadows were
creeping in all around them. Bronn had raised himself to one knee, his sword in one hand and his dirk in
the other. Tyrion held up a hand: stay still, it said. "Come share our fire, the night is cold," he called out to
the creeping shadows. "I fear we've no wine to offer you, but you're welcome to some of our goat."
All movement stopped. Tyrion saw the glint of moonlight on metal. "Our mountain," a voice called out
from the trees, deep and hard and unfriendly. "Our goat."
"Your goat," Tyrion agreed. "Who are you?"
"When you meet your gods," a different voice replied, "say it was Gunthor son of Gurn of the Stone
Crows who sent you to them." A branch cracked underfoot as he stepped into the light; a thin man in a
horned helmet, armed with a long knife.
"And Shagga son of Dolf." That was the first voice, deep and deadly. A boulder shifted to their left, and
stood, and became a man. Massive and slow and strong he seemed, dressed all in skins, with a club in
his right hand and an axe in his left. He smashed them together as he lumbered closer.
Other voices called other names, Conn and Torrek and Jaggot and more that Tyrion forgot the instant he
heard them; ten at least. A few had swords and knives; others brandished pitchforks and scythes and
wooden spears. He waited until they were done shouting out their names before he gave them answer. "I
am Tyrion son of Tywin, of the Clan Lannister, the Lions of the Rock. We will gladly pay you for the
goat we ate."
"What do you have to give us, Tyrion son of Tywin?" asked the one who named himself Gunthor, who
seemed to be their chief.
"There is silver in my purse," Tyrion told them. "This hauberk I wear is large for me, but it should fit
Conn nicely, and the battle-axe I carry would suit Shagga's mighty hand far better than that wood-axe he
holds."
"The halfman would pay us with our own coin," said Conn.
"Conn speaks truly," Gunthor said. "Your silver is ours. Your horses are ours. Your hauberk and your
battle-axe and the knife at your belt, those are ours too. You have nothing to give us but your lives. How


would you like to die, Tyrion son of Tywin?"
"In my own bed, with a belly full of wine and a maiden's mouth around my cock, at the age of eighty," he
replied.
The huge one, Shagga, laughed first and loudest. The others seemed less amused. "Conn, take their
horses," Gunthor commanded. "Kill the other and seize the halfinan. He can milk the goats and make the
mothers laugh."
Bronn sprang to his feet. "Who dies first?"
"No!" Tyrion said sharply. "Gunthor son of Gurn, hear me. My House is rich and powerful. If the Stone
Crows will see us safely through these mountains, my lord father will shower you with gold."
"The gold of a lowland lord is as worthless as a halfman's promises," Gunthor said.
"Half a man I may be," Tyrion said, "yet I have the courage to face my enemies. What do the Stone
Crows do, but hide behind rocks and shiver with fear as the knights of the Vale ride by?"
Shagga gave a roar of anger and clashed club against axe. Jaggot poked at Tyrion's face with the
fire-hardened point of a long wooden spear. He did his best not to flinch. "Are these the best weapons
you could steal?" he said. "Good enough for killing sheep, perhaps . . . if the sheep do not fight back. My
father's smiths shit better steel."
"Little boyman," Shagga roared, "will you mock my axe after I chop off your manhood and feed it to the
goats?"
But Gunthor raised a hand. "No. I would hear his words. The mothers go hungry, and steel fills more
mouths than gold. What would you give us for your lives, Tyrion son of Tywin? Swords? Lances? Mail?"
"All that, and more, Gunthor son of Gurn," Tyrion Lannister replied, smiling. "I will give you the Vale of
Arryn."
EDDARD
Through the high narrow windows of the Red Keep's cavernous throne room, the light of sunset spilled
across the floor, laying dark red stripes upon the walls where the heads of dragons had once hung. Now
the stone was covered with hunting tapestries, vivid with greens and browns and blues, and yet still it
seemed to Ned Stark that the only color in the hall was the red of blood.
He sat high upon the immense ancient seat of Aegon the Conqueror, an ironwork monstrosity of spikes
and jagged edges and grotesquely twisted metal. It was, as Robert had warned him, a hellishly
uncomfortable chair, and never more so than now, with his shattered leg throbbing more sharply every
minute. The metal beneath him had grown harder by the hour, and the fanged steel behind made it
impossible to lean back. A king should never sit easy, Aegon the Conqueror had said, when he
commanded his armorers to forge a great seat from the swords laid down by his enemies. Damn Aegon
for his arrogance, Ned thought sullenly, and damn Robert and his hunting as well.
"You are quite certain these were more than brigands?" Varys asked softly from the council table


beneath the throne. Grand Maester Pycelle stirred uneasily beside him, while Littlefinger toyed with a
pen. They were the only councillors in attendance. A white hart had been sighted in the kingswood, and
Lord Renly and Ser Barristan had joined the king to hunt it, along with Prince Joffrey, Sandor Clegane,
Balon Swann, and half the court. So Ned must needs sit the Iron Throne in his absence.
At least he could sit. Save the council, the rest must stand respectfully, or kneel. The petitioners
clustered near the tall doors, the knights and high lords and ladies beneath the tapestries, the smallfolk in
the gallery, the mailed guards in their cloaks, gold or grey: all stood.
The villagers were kneeling: men, women, and children, alike tattered and bloody, their faces drawn by
fear. The three knights who had brought them here to bear witness stood behind them.
"Brigands, Lord Varys?" Ser Raymun Darry's voice dripped scorn. "Oh, they were brigands, beyond a
doubt. Lannister brigands."
Ned could feel the unease in the hall, as high lords and servants alike strained to listen. He could not
pretend to surprise. The west had been a tinderbox since Catelyn had seized Tyrion Lannister. Both
Riverrun and Casterly Rock had called their banners, and armies were massing in the pass below the
Golden Tooth. It had only been a matter of time until the blood began to flow. The sole question that
remained was how best to stanch the wound.
Sad-eyed Ser Karyl Vance, who would have been handsome but for the winestain birthmark that
discolored his face, gestured at the kneeling villagers. "This is all the remains of the holdfast of Sherrer,
Lord Eddard. The rest are dead, along with the people of Wendish Town and the Mummer's Ford."
"Rise," Ned commanded the villagers. He never trusted what a man told him from his knees. "All of you,
up."
In ones and twos, the holdfast of Sherrer struggled to its feet. One ancient needed to be helped, and a
young girl in a bloody dress stayed on her knees, staring blankly at Ser Arys Oakheart, who stood by the
foot of the throne in the white armor of the Kingsguard, ready to protect and defend the king . . . or, Ned
supposed, the King's Hand.
"Joss," Ser Raymun Darry said to a plump balding man in a brewer's apron. "Tell the Hand what
happened at Sherrer."
Joss nodded. "If it please His Grace-"
"His Grace is hunting across the Blackwater," Ned said, wondering how a man could live his whole life a
few days ride from the Red Keep and still have no notion what his king looked like. Ned was clad in a
white linen doublet with the direwolf of Stark on the breast; his black wool cloak was fastened at the
collar by his silver hand of office. Black and white and grey, all the shades of truth. "I am Lord Eddard
Stark, the King's Hand. Tell me who you are and what you know of these raiders."
"I keep . . . I kept . . . I kept an alehouse, m'lord, in Sherrer, by


the stone bridge. The finest ale south of the Neck, everyone said so, begging your pardons, m1ord. It's
gone now like all the rest, m'lord. They come and drank their fill and spilled the rest before they fired my
roof, and they would of spilled my blood too, if they'd caught me. M'lord."
"They burnt us out," a farmer beside him said. "Come riding in the dark, up from the south, and fired the
fields and the houses alike, killing them as tried to stop them. They weren't no raiders, though, m1ord.
They had no mind to steal our stock, not these, they butchered my milk cow where she stood and left her
for the flies and the crows."
"They rode down my 'prentice boy," said a squat man with a smith's muscles and a bandage around his
head. He had put on his finest clothes to come to court, but his breeches were patched, his cloak
travel-stained and dusty. "Chased him back and forth across the fields on their horses, poking at him with
their lances like it was a game, them laughing and the boy stumbling and screaming till the big one pierced
him clean through."
The girl on her knees craned her head up at Ned, high above her on the throne. "They killed my mother
too, Your Grace. And they . . . they . . ." Her voice trailed off, as if she had forgotten what she was
about to say. She began to sob.
Ser Raymun Darry took up the tale. "At Wendish Town, the people sought shelter in their holdfast, but
the walls were timbered. The raiders piled straw against the wood and burnt them all alive. When the
Wendish folk opened their gates to flee the fire, they shot them down with arrows as they came running
out, even women with suckling babes."
"Oh, dreadful," murmured Varys. "How cruel can men be?"
"They would of done the same for us, but the Sherrer holdfast's made of stone," Joss said. "Some
wanted to smoke us out, but the big one said there was riper fruit upriver, and they made for the
Mummer's Ford."
Ned could feel cold steel against his fingers as he leaned forward. Between each finger was a blade, the
points of twisted swords fanning out like talons from arms of the throne. Even after three centuries, some
were still sharp enough to cut. The Iron Throne was full of traps for the unwary. The songs said it had
taken a thousand blades to make it, heated white-hot in the furnace breath of Balerion the Black Dread.
The hammering had taken fifty-nine days. The end of it was this hunched black beast made of razor
edges and barbs and ribbons of sharp metal; a chair that could kill a man, and had, if the stories could be
believed.
What Eddard Stark was doing sitting there he would never comprehend, yet there he sat, and these
people looked to him for justice. "What proof do you have that these were Lannisters?" he asked, trying
to keep his fury under control. "Did they wear crimson cloaks or fly a lion banner?"
"Even Lannisters are not so blind stupid as that," Ser Marq Piper snapped. He was a swaggering bantam
rooster of a youth, too young and too hot-blooded for Ned's taste, though a fast friend of Catelyn's
brother, Edmure Tully.
"Every man among them was mounted and mailed, my lord," Ser Karyl answered calmly. "They were
armed with steel-tipped lances and longswords, with battle-axes for the butchering." He gestured toward
one of the ragged survivors. "You. Yes, you, no one's going to hurt you. Tell the Hand what you told


me."
The old man bobbed his head. "Concerning their horses," he said, "it were warhorses they rode. Many a
year I worked in old Ser Willum's stables, so I knows the difference. Not a one of these ever pulled a
plow, gods bear witness if I'm wrong."
"Well-mounted brigands," observed Littlefinger. "Perhaps they stole the horses from the last place they
raided."
"How many men were there in this raiding party?" Ned asked.
"A hundred, at the least," Joss answered, in the same instant as the bandaged smith said, "Fifty," and the
grandmother behind him, "Hunnerds and hunnerds, m1ord, an army they was."
"You are more right than you know, goodwoman," Lord Eddard told her. "You say they flew no
banners. What of the armor they wore? Did any of you note ornaments or decorations, devices on shield
or helm?"
The brewer, Joss, shook his head. "It grieves me, m1ord, but no, the armor they showed us was plain,
only . . . the one who led them, he was armored like the rest, but there was no mistaking him all the same.
It was the size of him, m'lord. Those as say the giants are all dead never saw this one, I swear. Big as an
ox he was, and a voice like stone breaking."
"The Mountain!" Ser Marq said loudly. "Can any man doubt it? This was Gregor Clegane's work."
Ned heard muttering from beneath the windows and the far end of the hall. Even in the galley, nervous
whispers were exchanged. High lords and smallfolk alike knew what it could mean if Ser Marq was
proved right. Ser Gregor Clegane stood bannerman to Lord Tywin Lannister.
He studied the frightened faces of the villagers. Small wonder they
had been so fearful; they had thought they were being dragged here to name Lord Tywin a red-handed
butcher before a king who was his son by marriage. He wondered if the knights had given them a choice.
Grand Maester Pycelle rose ponderously from the council table, his chain of office clinking. "Ser Marq,
with respect, you cannot know that this outlaw was Ser Gregor. There are many large men in the realm."
"As large as the Mountain That Rides?" Ser Karyl said. "I have never met one."
"Nor has any man here," Ser Raymun added hotly. "Even his brother is a pup beside him. My lords,
open your eyes. Do you need to see his seal on the corpses? It was Gregor."
"Why should Ser Gregor turn brigand?" Pycelle asked. "By the grace of his liege lord, he holds a stout
keep and lands of his own. The man is an anointed knight."
"A false knight!" Ser Marq said. "Lord Tywin's mad dog."
"My lord Hand," Pycelle declared in a stiff voice, "I urge you to remind this good knight that Lord Tywin
Lannister is the father of our own gracious queen."


"Thank you, Grand Maester Pycelle," Ned said. "I fear we might have forgotten that if you had not
pointed it out."
From his vantage point atop the throne, he could see men slipping out the door at the far end of the hall.
Hares going to ground, he supposed . . . or rats off to nibble the queen's cheese. He caught a glimpse of
Septa Mordane in the gallery, with his daughter Sansa beside her. Ned felt a flash of anger; this was no
place for a girl. But the septa could not have known that today's court would be anything but the usual
tedious business of hearing petitions, settling disputes between rival holdfasts, and adjudicating the
placement of boundary stones.
At the council table below, Petyr Baelish lost interest in his quill and leaned forward. "Ser Marq, Ser
Karyl, Ser Raymun-perhaps I might ask you a question? These holdfasts were under your protection.
Where were you when all this slaughtering and burning was going on?"
Ser Karyl Vance answered. "I was attending my lord father in the pass below the Golden Tooth, as was
Ser Marq. When the word of these outrages reached Ser Edmure Tully, he sent word that we should
take a small force of men to find what survivors we could and bring them to the king."
Ser Raymun Darry spoke up. "Ser Edmure had summoned me to Riverrun with all my strength. I was
camped across the river from his walls, awaiting his commands, when the word reached me. By the time
1 could return to my own lands, Clegane and his vermin were back across the Red Fork, riding for
Lannister's hills."
Littlefinger stroked the point of his beard thoughtfully. "And if they come again, ser?"
"If they come again, we'll use their blood to water the fields they burnt," Ser Marq Piper declared hotly.
"Ser Edmure has sent men to every village and holdfast within a day's ride of the border," Ser Karyl
explained. "The next raider will not have such an easy time of it."
And that may be precisely what Lord Tywin wants, Ned thought to himself, to bleed off strength from
Riverrun, goad the boy into scattering his swords. His wife's brother was young, and more gallant than
wise. He would try to hold every inch of his soil, to defend every man, woman, and child who named him
lord, and Tywin Lannister was shrewd enough to know that.
"If your fields and holdfasts are safe from harm," Lord Petyr was saying, "what then do you ask of the
throne?"
"The lords of the Trident keep the king's peace," Ser Raymun Darry said. "The Lannisters have broken
it. We ask leave to answer them, steel for steel. We ask justice for the smallfolk of Sherrer and Wendish
Town and the Mummer's Ford."
"Edmure agrees, we must pay Gregor Clegane back his bloody coin," Ser Marq declared, "but old Lord
Hoster commanded us to come here and beg the king's leave before we strike."
Thank the gods for old Lord Hoster, then. Tywin Lannister was as much fox as lion. If indeed he'd sent
Ser Gregor to burn and pillageand Ned did not doubt that he had-he'd taken care to see that he rode


under cover of night, without banners, in the guise of a common brigand. Should Riverrun strike back,
Cersei and her father would insist that it had been the Tullys who broke the king's peace, not the
Lannisters. The gods only knew what Robert would believe.
Grand Maester Pycelle was on his feet again. "My lord Hand, if these good folk believe that Ser Gregor
has forsaken his holy vows for plunder and rape, let them go to his liege lord and make their complaint.
These crimes are no concern of the throne. Let them seek Lord Tywin's justice."
"It is all the king's justice," Ned told him. "North, south, east, or west, all we do we do in Robert's
name."
"The king's justice," Grand Maester Pycelle said. "So it is, and so we should defer this matter until the
king-"
"The king is hunting across the river and may not return for days," Lord Eddard said. "Robert bid me to
sit here in his place, to listen with
his ears, and to speak with his voice. I mean to do just that ... though I agree that he must be told." He
saw a familiar face beneath the tapestries. "Ser Robar."
Ser Robar Royce stepped forward and bowed. "My lord."
"Your father is hunting with the king," Ned said. "Will you bring them word of what was said and done
here today?"
"At once, my lord."
"Do we have your leave to take our vengeance against Ser Gregor, then?" Marq Piper asked the throne.
"Vengeance?" Ned said. "I thought we were speaking of justice. Burning Clegane's fields and
slaughtering his people will not restore the king's peace, only your injured pride." He glanced away
before the young knight could voice his outraged protest, and addressed the villagers. "People of Sherrer,
I cannot give you back your homes or your crops, nor can I restore your dead to life. But perhaps I can
give you some small measure of justice, in the name of our king, Robert."
Every eye in the hall was fixed on him, waiting. Slowly Ned struggled to his feet, pushing himself up from
the throne with the strength of his arms, his shattered leg screaming inside its cast. He did his best to
ignore the pain; it was no moment to let them see his weakness. "The First Men believed that the judge
who called for death should wield the sword, and in the north we hold to that still. I mislike sending
another to do my killing . . . yet it seems I have no choice." He gestured at his broken leg.
"Lord Eddard!" The shout came from the west side of the hall as a handsome stripling of a boy strode
forth boldly. Out of his armor, Ser Loras Tyrell looked even younger than his sixteen years. He wore
pale blue silk, his belt a linked chain of golden roses, the sigil of his House. "I beg you the honor of acting
in your place. Give this task to me, my lord, and I swear I shall not fail you."
Littlefinger chuckled. "Ser Loras, if we send you off alone, Ser Gregor will send us back your head with
a plum stuffed in that pretty mouth of yours. The Mountain is not the sort to bend his neck to any man's
justice."


"I do not fear Gregor Clegane," Ser Loras said haughtily.
Ned eased himself slowly back onto the hard iron seat of Aegon's misshapen throne. His eyes searched
the faces along the wall. "Lord Beric," he called out. "Thoros of Myr. Ser Gladden. Lord Lothar." The
men named stepped forward one by one. "Each of you is to assemble twenty men, to bring my word to
Gregor's keep. Twenty of my own guards shall go with you. Lord Beric Dondarrion, you shall have the
command, as befits your rank."
The young lord with the red-gold hair bowed. "As you command, Lord Eddard."
Ned raised his voice, so it carried to the far end of the throne room. "In the name of Robert of the
House Baratheon, the First of his Name, King of the Andals and the Rhoynar and the First Men, Lord of
the Seven Kingdoms and Protector of the Realm, by the word of Eddard of the House Stark, his Hand, I
charge you to ride to the westlands with all haste, to cross the Red Fork of the Trident under the king's
flag, and there bring the king's justice to the false knight Gregor Clegane, and to all those who shared in
his crimes. I denounce him, and attaint him, and strip him of all rank and titles, of all lands and incomes
and holdings, and do sentence him to death. May the gods take pity on his soul."
When the echo of his words had died away, the Knight of Flowers seemed perplexed. "Lord Eddard,
what of me?"
Ned looked down on him. From on high, Loras Tyrell seemed almost as young as Robb. "No one
doubts your valor, Ser Loras, but we are about justice here, and what you seek is vengeance." He
looked back to Lord Beric. "Ride at first light. These things are best done quickly." He held up a hand.
"The throne will hear no more petitions today."
Alyn and Porther climbed the steep iron steps to help him back down. As they made their descent, he
could feel Loras Tyrell's sullen stare, but the boy had stalked away before Ned reached the floor of the
throne room.
At the base of the Iron Throne, Varys was gathering papers from the council table. Littlefinger and
Grand Maester Pycelle had already taken their leave. "You are a bolder man than 1, my lord," the
eunuch said softly.
"How so, Lord Varys?" Ned asked brusquely. His leg was throbbing, and he was in no mood for word
games.
"Had it been me up there, I should have sent Ser Loras. He so wanted to go . . . and a man who has the
Lannisters for his enemies would do well to make the Tyrells his friends."
"Ser Loras is young," said Ned. "I daresay he will outgrow the disappointment."
"And Ser Ilyn?" The eunuch stroked a plump, powdered cheek. "He is the King's Justice, after all.
Sending other men to do his office . . . some might construe that as a grave insult."
"No slight was intended." In truth, Ned did not trust the mute knight, though perhaps that was only
because he misliked execution-


ers. "I remind you, the Paynes are bannermen to House Lannister. I thought it best to choose men who
owed Lord Tywin no fealty."
"Very prudent, no doubt," Varys said. "Still, I chanced to see Ser Ilyn in the back of the hall, staring at
us with those pale eyes of his, and I must say, he did not look pleased, though to be sure it is hard to tell
with our silent knight. I hope he outgrows his disappointment as well. He does so love his work . . ."
SANSA
"He wouldn't send Ser Loras," Sansa told Jeyne Poole that night as they shared a cold supper by
lamplight. "I think it was because of his leg."
Lord Eddard had taken his supper in his bedchamber with Alyn, Harwin, and Vayon Poole, the better to
rest his broken leg, and Septa Mordane had complained of sore feet after standing in the gallery all day.
Arya was supposed to join them, but she was late coming back from her dancing lesson.
"His leg?" Jeyne said uncertainly. She was a pretty, dark-haired girl of Sansa's own age. "Did Ser Loras
hurt his leg?"
"Not his leg," Sansa said, nibbling delicately at a chicken leg. "Father's leg, silly. It hurts him ever so
much, it makes him cross. Otherwise I'm certain he would have sent Ser Loras."
Her father's decision still bewildered her. When the Knight of Flowers had spoken up, she'd been sure
she was about to see one of Old Nan's stories come to life. Ser Gregor was the monster and Ser Loras
the true hero who would slay him. He even looked a true hero, so slim and beautiful, with golden roses
around his slender waist and his rich brown hair tumbling down into his eyes. And then Father had
refused him! It had upset her more than she could tell. She had said as much to Septa Mordane as they
descended the stairs from the gallery, but the
septa had only told her it was not her place to question her lord father's decisions.
That was when Lord Baelish had said, "Oh, I don't know, Septa. Some of her lord father's decisions
could do with a bit of questioning. The young lady is as wise as she is lovely." He made a sweeping bow
to Sansa, so deep she was not quite sure if she was being complimented or mocked.
Septa Mordane had been very upset to realize that Lord Baelish had overheard them. "The girl was just
talking, my lord," she'd said. "Foolish chatter. She meant nothing by the comment."
Lord Baelish stroked his little pointed beard and said, "Nothing? Tell me, child, why would you have
sent Ser Loras?"


Sansa had no choice but to explain about heroes and monsters. The king's councillor smiled. "Well,
those are not the reasons I'd have given, but . . ." He had touched her cheek, his thumb lightly tracing the
line of a cheekbone. "Life is not a song, sweetling. You may learn that one day to your sorrow."
Sansa did not feel like telling all that to Jeyne, however; it made her uneasy just to think back on it.
"Ser Ilyn's the King's Justice, not Ser Loras," Jcyne said. "Lord Eddard should have sent him."
Sansa shuddered. Every time she looked at Ser Ilyn Payne, she shivered. He made her feel as though
something dead were slithering over her naked skin. "Ser Ilyn's almost like a second monster. I'm glad
Father didn't pick him."
"Lord Beric is as much a hero as Ser Loras. He's ever so brave and gallant."
"I suppose," Sansa said doubtfully. Beric Dondarrion was handsome enough, but he was awfully old,
almost twenty-two; the Knight of Flowers would have been much better. Of course, Jeyne had been in
love with Lord Beric ever since she had first glimpsed him in the lists. Sansa thought she was being silly;
Jeyne was only a steward's daughter, after all, and no matter how much she mooned after him, Lord
Beric would never look at someone so far beneath him, even if she hadn't been half his age.
It would have been unkind to say so, however, so Sansa took a sip of milk and changed the subject. "I
had a dream that Jofftey would be the one to take the white hart," she said. It had been more of a wish,
actually, but it sounded better to call it a dream. Everyone knew that dreams were prophetic. White harts
were supposed to be very rare and magical, and in her heart she knew her gallant prince was worthier
than his drunken father.
"A dream? Truly? Did Prince Joffrey just go up to it and touch it with his bare hand and do it no harm?"
"No," Sansa said. "He shot it with a golden arrow and brought it back for me." In the songs, the knights
never killed magical beasts, they just went up to them and touched them and did them no harm, but she
knew Jofftey liked hunting, especially the killing part. Only animals, though. Sansa was certain her prince
had no part in murdering Jory and those other poor men; that had been his wicked uncle, the Kingslayer.
She knew her father was still angry about that, but it wasn't fair to blame Joff. That would be like blaming
her for something that Arya had done.
"I saw your sister this afternoon," Jeyne blurted out, as if she'd been reading Sansa's thoughts. "She was
walking through the stables on her hands. Why would she do a thing like that?"
"I'm sure I don't know why Arya does anything." Sansa hated stables, smelly places full of manure and
flies. Even when she went riding, she liked the boy to saddle the horse and bring it to her in the yard. "Do
you want to hear about the court or not?"
"I do," Jeyne said.
"There-was a black brother," Sansa said, "begging men for the Wall, only he was kind of old and
smelly." She hadn't liked that at all. She had always imagined the Night's Watch to be men like Uncle
Benjen. In the songs, they were called the black knights of the Wall. But this man had been crookbacked
and hideous, and he looked as though he might have lice. If this was what the Night's Watch was truly
like, she felt sorry for her bastard half brother, Jon. "Father asked if there were any knights in the hall


who would do honor to their houses by taking the black, but no one came forward, so he gave this
Yoren his pick of the king's dungeons and sent him on his way. And later these two brothers came before
him, freeriders from the Dornish Marches, and pledged their swords to the service of the king. Father
accepted their oaths . . ."
Jeyne yawned. "Are there any lemon cakes?"
Sansa did not like being interrupted, but she had to admit, lemon cakes sounded more interesting than
most of what had gone on in the throne room. "Let's see," she said.
The kitchen yielded no lemon cakes, but they did find half of a cold strawberry pie, and that was almost
as good. They ate it on the tower steps, giggling and gossiping and sharing secrets, and Sansa went to
bed that night feeling almost as wicked as Arya.
The next morning she woke before first light and crept sleepily to her window to watch Lord Beric form
up his men. They rode out as
dawn was breaking over the city, with three banners going before them; the crowned stag of the king
flew from the high staff, the direwolf of Stark and Lord Beric's own forked lightning standard from
shorter poles. It was all so exciting, a song come to life; the clatter of swords, the flicker of torchlight,
banners dancing in the wind, horses snorting and whinnying, the golden glow of sunrise slanting through
the bars of the portcullis as it jerked upward. The Winterfell men looked especially fine in their silvery
mail and long grey cloaks.
Alyn carried the Stark banner. When she saw him rein in beside Lord Beric to exchange words, it made
Sansa feel ever so proud. Alyn was handsomer than Jory had been; he was going to be a knight one day.
The Tower of the Hand seemed so empty after they left that Sansa was even pleased to see Arya when
she went down to break her fast. "Where is everyone?" her sister wanted to know as she ripped the skin
from a blood orange. "Did Father send them to hunt down Jaime Lannister?"
Sansa sighed. "They rode with Lord Beric, to behead Ser Gregor Clegane." She turned to Septa
Mordane, who was eating porridge with a wooden spoon. "Septa, will Lord Beric spike Ser Gregor's
head on his own gate or bring it back here for the king?" She and Jeyne Poole had been arguing over that
last night.
The septa was horror-struck. "A lady does not discuss such things over her porridge. Where are your
courtesies, Sansa? I swear, of late you've been near as bad as your sister."
"What did Gregor do?" Arya asked.
"He burned down a holdfast and murdered a lot of people, women and children too."
Arya screwed up her face in a scowl. "Jaime Lannister murdered Jory and Heward and Wyl, and the
Hound murdered Mycah. Somebody should have beheaded them."
"It's not the same," Sansa said. "The Hound is Joffrey's sworn shield. Your butcher's boy attacked the
prince."


"Liar," Arya said. Her hand clenched the blood orange so hard that red juice oozed between her fingers.
"Go ahead, call me all the names you want," Sansa said airily. "You won't dare when I'm married to
Joffrey. You'll have to bow to me and call me Your Grace." She shrieked as Arya flung the orange
across the table. It caught her in the middle of the forehead with a wet squish and plopped down into her
lap.
"You have juice on your face, Your Grace," Arya said.
It was running down her nose and stinging her eyes. Sansa wiped it
away with a napkin. When she saw what the fruit in her lap had done to her beautiful ivory silk dress,
she shrieked again. "You're horrible," she screamed at her sister. "They should have killed you instead of
Lady!"
Septa Mordane came lurching to her feet. "Your lord father will hear of this! Go to your chambers, at
once. At once!"
"Me too?" Tears welled in Sansa's eyes. "That's not fair."
"The matter is not subject to discussion. Go!"
Sansa stalked away with her head up. She was to be a queen, and queens did not cry. At least not
where people could see. When she reached her bedchamber, she barred the door and took off her
dress. The blood orange had left a blotchy red stain on the silk. "I hate her!" she screamed. She balled up
the dress and flung it into the cold hearth, on top of the ashes of last night's fire. When she saw that the
stain had bled through onto her underskirt, she began to sob despite herself. She ripped off the rest of her
clothes wildly, threw herself into bed, and cried herself back to sleep.
It was midday when Septa Mordane knocked upon her door. "Sansa. Your lord father will see you
now."
Sansa sat up. "Lady," she whispered. For a moment it was as if the direwolf was there in the room,
looking at her with those golden eyes, sad and knowing. She had been dreaming, she realized. Lady was
with her, and they were running together, and . . . and . . . trying to remember was like trying to catch the
rain with her fingers. The dream faded, and Lady was dead again.
"Sansa." The rap came again, sharply. "Do you hear me?"
"Yes, Septa," she called out. "Might I have a moment to dress, please?" Her eyes were red from crying,
but she did her best to make herself beautiful.
Lord Eddard was bent over a huge leather-bound book when Septa Mordane marched her into the
solar, his plaster-wrapped leg stiff beneath the table. "Come here, Sansa," he said, not unkindly, when the
septa had gone for her sister. "Sit beside me." He closed the book.
Septa Mordane returned with Arya squirming in her grasp. Sansa had put on a lovely pale green damask
gown and a look of remorse, but her sister was still wearing the ratty leathers and roughspun she'd worn
at breakfast. "Here is the other one," the septa announced.


"My thanks, Septa Mordane. I would talk to my daughters alone, if you would be so kind." The septa
bowed and left.
"Arya started it," Sansa said quickly, anxious to have the first word. "She called me a liar and threw an
orange at me and spoiled my dress, the ivory silk, the one Queen Cersei gave me when I was betrothed
to
Prince Joffrey. She hates that I'm going to marry the prince. She tries to spoil everything, Father, she
can't stand for anything to be beautiful or nice or splendid."
"Enough, Sansa." Lord Eddard's voice was sharp with impatience.
Arya raised her eyes. "I'm sorry, Father. I was wrong and I beg my sweet sister's forgiveness."
Sansa was so startled that for a moment she was speechless. Finally she found her voice. "What about
my dress?"
"Maybe . . . I could wash it," Arya said doubtfully.
"Washing won't do any good," Sansa said. "Not if you scrubbed all day and all night. The silk is ruined."
"Then I'll . . . make you a new one," Arya said.
Sansa threw back her head in disdain. "You? You couldn't sew a dress fit to clean the pigsties."
Their father sighed. "I did not call you here to talk of dresses. I'm sending you both back to Winterfell."
For the second time Sansa found herself too stunned for words. She felt her eyes grow moist again.
"You can't," Arya said.
"Please, Father," Sansa managed at last. "Please don't."
Eddard Stark favored his daughters with a tired smile. "At last we've found something you agree on."
"I didn't do anything wrong," Sansa pleaded with him. "I don't want to go back." She loved Mng's
Landing; the pagaentry of the court, the high lords and ladies in their velvets and silks and gemstones, the
great city with all its people. The tournament had been the most magical time of her whole life, and there
was so much she had not seen yet, harvest feasts and masked balls and mummer shows. She could not
bear the thought of losing it all. "Send Arya away, she started it, Father, I swear it. I'll be good, you'll see,
just let me stay and I promise to be as fine and noble and courteous as the queen."
Father's mouth twitched strangely. "Sansa, I'm not sending you away for fighting, though the gods know
I'm sick of you two squabbling. I want you back in Winterfell for your own safety. Three of my men were
cut down like dogs not a league from where we sit, and what does Robert do? He goes hunting."
Arya was chewing at her lip in that disgusting way she had. "Can we take Syrio back with us?"


"Who cares about your stupid dancing master?" Sansa flared. "Father, I only just now remembered, I
can't go away, I'm to marry Prince Joffrey." She tried to smile bravely for him. "I love him, Father, I truly
truly do, I love him as much as Queen Naerys loved Prince Aemon the
Dragonknight, as much as Jonquil loved Ser Florian. I want to be his queen and have his babies."
"Sweet one," her father said gently, "listen to me. When you're old enough, I will make you a match with
a high lord who's worthy of you, someone brave and gentle and strong. This match with Joffrey was a
terrible mistake. That boy is no Prince Aemon, you must believe me."
"He is!" Sansa insisted. "I don't want someone brave and gentle, I want him. We'll be ever so happy, just
like in the songs, you'll see. I'll give him a son with golden hair, and one day he'll be the king of all the
realm, the greatest king that ever was, as brave as the wolf and as proud as the lion."
Arya made a face. "Not if Joffrey's his father," she said. "He's a liar and a craven and anyhow he's a
stag, not a lion."
Sansa felt tears in her eyes. "He is not! He's not the least bit like that old drunken king," she screamed at
her sister, forgetting herself in her grief.
Father looked at her strangely. "Gods, " he swore softly, "out of the mouth of babes . . ." He shouted for
Septa Mordane. To the girls he said, "I am looking for a fast trading galley to take you home. These
days, the sea is safer than the kingsroad. You will sail as soon as I can find a proper ship, with Septa
Mordane and a complement of guards . . . and yes, with Syrio Forel, if he agrees to enter my service.
But say nothing of this. It's better if no one knows of our plans. We'll talk again tomorrow."
Sansa cried as Septa Mordane marched them down the steps. They were going to take it all away; the
tournaments and the court and her prince, everything, they were going to send her back to the bleak grey
walls of Winterfell and lock her up forever. Her life was over before it had begun.
"Stop that weeping, child," Septa Mordane said sternly. "I am certain your lord father knows what is
best for you."
"It won't be so bad, Sansa," Arya said. "We're going to sail on a galley. It will be an adventure, and then
we'll be with Bran and Robb again, and Old Nan and Hodor and the rest." She touched her on the arm.
"Hodor!" Sansa yelled. "You ought to marry Hodor, you're just like him, stupid and hairy and ugly!" She
wrenched away from her sister's hand, stormed into her bedchamber, and barred the door behind her.
EDDARD
"Pain is a gift from the gods, Lord Eddard," Grand Maester Pycelle told him. "It means the bone is
knitting, the flesh
healing itself. Be thankful."
"I will be thankful when my leg stops throbbing."


Pycelle set a stoppered flask on the table by the bed. "The milk of the poppy, for when the pain grows
too onerous."
"I sleep too much already."
"Sleep is the great healer."
"I had hoped that was you."
Pycelle smiled wanly. "It is good to see you in such a fierce humor, my lord." He leaned close and
lowered his voice. "There was a raven this morning, a letter for the queen from her lord father. I thought
you had best know."
"Dark wings, dark words," Ned said grimly. "What of it?"
"Lord Tywin is greatly wroth about the men you sent after Ser Gregor Clegane," the maester confided. "I
feared he would be. You will recall, I said as much in council."
"Let him be wroth," Ned said. Every time his leg throbbed, he remembered Jaime Lannister's smile, and
Jory dead in his arms. "Let him write all the letters to the queen he likes. Lord Beric rides beneath the
king's own banner. If Lord Tywin attempts to interfere with the king's justice, he will have Robert to
answer to. The only thing His
Grace enjoys more than hunting is making war on lords who defy him."
Pycelle pulled back, his maester's chain jangling. "As you say. I shall visit again on the morrow." The old
man hurriedly gathered up his things and took his leave. Ned had little doubt that he was bound straight
for the royal apartments, to whisper at the queen. I thought you had best know, indeed . . . as if Cersei
had not instructed him to pass along her father's threats. He hoped his response rattled those perfect
teeth of hers. Ned was not near as confident of Robert as he pretended, but there was no reason Cersei
need know that.
When Pycelle was gone, Ned called for a cup of honeyed wine. That clouded the mind as well, yet not
as badly. He needed to be able to think. A thousand times, he asked himself what Jon Arryn might have
done, had he lived long enough to act on what he'd learned. Or perhaps he had acted, and died for it.
It was queer how sometimes a child's innocent eyes can see things that grown men are blind to.
Someday, when Sansa was grown, he would have to tell her how she had made it all come clear for him.
He's not the least bit like that old drunken king, she had declared, angry and unknowing, and the simple
truth of it had twisted inside him, cold as death. This was the sword that killed Jon Anyn, Ned thought
then, and it will kill Robert as well, a slower death but full as certain. Shattered legs may heal in time, but
some betrayals fester and poison the soul.
Littlefinger came calling an hour after the Grand Maester had left, clad in a plum-colored doublet with a
mockingbird embroidered on the breast in black thread, and a striped cloak of black and white. "I cannot
visit long, my lord," he announced. "Lady Tanda expects me to lunch with her. No doubt she will roast
me a fatted calf. If it's near as fatted as her daughter, I'm like to rupture and die. And how is your leg?"


"Inflamed and painful, with an itch that is driving me mad."
Littlefinger lifted an eyebrow. "In future, try not to let any horses fall on it. I would urge you to heal
quickly. The realm grows restive. Varys has heard ominous whispers from the west. Freeriders and
sellswords have been flocking to Casterly Rock, and not for the thin pleasure of Lord Tywin's
conversation."
"Is there word of the king?" Ned demanded. "Just how long does Robert intend to hunt?"
"Given his preferences, I believe he'd stay in the forest until you and the queen both die of old age," Lord
Petyr replied with a faint smile. "Lacking that, I imagine he'll return as soon as he's killed something. They
found the white hart, it seems . . . or rather, what remained
of it. Some wolves found it first, and left His Grace scarcely more than a hoof and a horn.
Robert was in a fury, until he heard talk of some monstrous boar deeper in the forest. Then nothing
would do but he must have it. Prince Joffrey returned this morning, with the Royces, Ser Balon Swann,
and some twenty others of the party. The rest are still with the king."
"The Hound?" Ned asked, frowning. Of all the Lannister party, Sandor Clegane was the one who
concerned him the most, now that Ser Jaime had fled the city to join his father.
"Oh, returned with Joffrey, and went straight to the queen." Littlefinger smiled. "I would have given a
hundred silver stags to have been a roach in the rushes when he learned that Lord Beric was off to
behead his brother."
"Even a blind man could see the Hound loathed his brother."
"Ah, but Gregor was his to loathe, not yours to kill. Once Dondarrion lops the summit off our Mountain,
the Clegane lands and incomes will pass to Sandor, but I wouldn't hold my water waiting for his thanks,
not that one. And now you must forgive me. Lady Tanda awaits with her fatted calves."
On the way to the door, Lord Petyr spied Grand Maester Malleon's massive tome on the table and
paused to idly flip open the cover. "The Lineages and Histories of the Great Houses of the Seven
Kingdoms, With Descriptions of Many High Lords and Noble Ladies and Their Children, " he read.
"Now there is tedious reading if ever I saw it. A sleeping potion, my lord?"
For a brief moment Ned considered telling him all of it, but there was something in Littlefinger's japes
that irked him. The man was too clever by half, a mocking smile never far from his lips. "Jon Arryn was
studying this volume when he was taken sick," Ned said in a careful tone, to see how he might respond.
And he responded as he always did: with a quip. "In that case," he said, "death must have come as a
blessed relief." Lord Petyr Baelish bowed and took his leave.
Eddard Stark allowed himself a curse. Aside from his own retainers, there was scarcely a man in this city
he trusted. Littlefinger had concealed Catelyn and helped Ned in his inquiries, yet his haste to save his
own skin when Jaime and his swords had come out of the rain still rankled. Varys was worse. For all his
protestations of loyalty, the eunuch knew too much and did too little. Grand Maester Pycelle seemed
more Cersei's creature with every passing day, and Ser Barristan was an old man, and rigid. He would
tell Ned to do his duty.


Time was perilously short. The king would return from his hunt
soon, and honor would require Ned to go to him with all he had learned. Vayon Poole had arranged for
Sansa and Arya to sail on the Wind Witch out of Braavos, three days hence. They would be back at
Winterfell before the harvest. Ned could no longer use his concern for their safety to excuse his delay.
Yet last night he had dreamt of Rhaegar's children. Lord Tywin had laid the bodies beneath the Iron
Throne, wrapped in the crimson cloaks of his house guard. That was clever of him; the blood did not
show so badly against the red cloth. The little princess had been barefoot, still dressed in her bed gown,
and the boy . . . the boy . . .
Ned could not let that happen again. The realm could not withstand a second mad king, another dance
of blood and vengeance. He must find some way to save the children.
Robert could be merciful. Ser Barristan was scarcely the only man he had pardoned. Grand Maester
Pycelle, Varys the Spider, Lord Balon Greyjoy; each had been counted an enemy to Robert once, and
each had been welcomed into friendship and allowed to retain honors and office for a pledge of fealty.
So long as a man was brave and honest, Robert would treat him with all the honor and respect due a
valiant enemy.
This was something else: poison in the dark, a knife thrust to the soul. This he could never forgive, no
more than he had forgiven Rhaegar. He will kill them all, Ned realized.
And yet, he knew he could not keep silent. He had a duty to Robert, to the realm, to the shade of Jon
Arryn . . . and to Bran, who surely must have stumbled on some part of the truth. Why else would they
have tried to slay him?
Late that afternoon he summoned Tomard, the portly guardsman with the ginger-colored whiskers his
children called Fat Tom. With Jory dead and Alyn gone, Fat Tom had command of his household guard.
The thought filled Ned with vague disquiet. Tomard was a solid man; affable, loyal, tireless, capable in a
limited way, but he was near fifty, and even in his youth he had never been energetic. Perhaps Ned
should not have been so quick to send off half his guard, and all his best swords among them.
"I shall require your help," Ned said when Tomard appeared, looking faintly apprehensive, as he always
did when called before his lord. "Take me to the godswood."
"Is that wise, Lord Eddard? With your leg and all?"
"Perhaps not. But necessary."
Tomard summoned Varly. With one arm around each man's shoulders, Ned managed to descend the
steep tower steps and hobble across
the bailey. "I want the guard doubled," he told Fat Tom. "No one enters or leaves the Tower of the
Hand without my leave."


Tom blinked. "NI'lord, with Alyn and the others away, we are hardpressed already-"
"It will only be a short while. Lengthen the watches."
"As you say, m'lord," Tom answered. "Might I ask why-"
"Best not," Ned answered crisply.
The godswood was empty, as it always was here in this citadel of the southron gods. Ned's leg was
screaming as they lowered him to the grass beside the heart tree. "Thank you." He drew a paper from his
sleeve, sealed with the sigil of his House. "Kindly deliver this at once."
Tomard looked at the name Ned had written on the paper and licked his lips anxiously. "My lord . . ."
"Do as I bid you, Tom," Ned said.
How long he waited in the quiet of the godswood, he could not say. It was peaceful here. The thick
walls shut out the clamor of the castle, and he could hear birds singing, the murmur of crickets, leaves
rustling in a gentle wind. The heart tree was an oak, brown and faceless, yet Ned Stark still felt the
presence of his gods. His leg did not seem to hurt so much.
She came to him at sunset, as the clouds reddened above the walls and towers. She came alone, as he
had bid her. For once she was dressed simply, in leather boots and hunting greens. When she drew back
the hood of her brown cloak, he saw the bruise where the king had struck her. The angry plum color had
faded to yellow, and the swelling was down, but there was no mistaking it for anything but what it was.
"Why here?" Cersei Lannister asked as she stood over him.
"So the gods can see."
She sat beside him on the grass. Her every move was graceful. Her curling blond hair moved in the
wind, and her eyes were green as the leaves of summer. It had been a long time since Ned Stark had
seen her beauty, but he saw it now. "I know the truth Jon Arryn died for," he told her.
"Do you?" The queen watched his face, wary as a cat. "Is that why you called me here, Lord Stark? To
pose me riddles? Or is it your intent to seize me, as your wife seized my brother?"
"If you truly believed that, you would never have come." Ned touched her cheek gently. "Has he done
this before?"
"Once or twice." She shied away from his hand. "Never on the face before. Jaime would have killed him,
even if it meant his own life."
Cersei looked at him defiantly. "My brother is worth a hundred of your friend."
"Your brother?" Ned said. "Or your lover?"
"Both." She did not flinch from the truth. "Since we were children together. And why not? The
Targaryens wed brother to sister for three hundred years, to keep the bloodlines pure. And Jaime and I


are more than brother and sister. We are one person in two bodies. We shared a womb together. He
came into this world holding my foot, our old maester said. When he is in me, I feel . . . whole." The
ghost of a smile flitted over her lips.
"My son Bran . . ."
To her credit, Cersei did not look away. "He saw us. You love your children, do you not?"
Robert had asked him the very same question, the morning of the melee. He gave her the same answer.
"With all my heart."
"No less do I love mine."
Ned thought, If it came to that, the life of some child I did not know, against Robb and Sansa and Arya
and Bran and Rickon, what would I do? Even more so, what would Catelyn do, if it were Jon's life,
against the children of her body? He did not know. He prayed he never would.
"All three are Jaime's," he said. It was not a question.
"Thank the gods."
The seed is strong, Jon Arryn had cried on his deathbed, and so it was. All those bastards, all with hair
as black as night. Grand Maester Malleon recorded the last mating between stag and lion, some ninety
years ago, when Tya Lannister wed Gowen Baratheon, third son of the reigning lord. Their only issue, an
unnamed boy described in Malleon's tome as a large and lusty lad born with a full head of black hair,
died in infancy. Thirty years before that a male Lannister had taken a Baratheon maid to wife. She had
given him three daughters and a son, each black-haired. No matter how far back Ned searched in the
brittle yellowed pages, always he found the gold yielding before the coal.
"A dozen years," Ned said. "How is it that you have had no children by the king?"
She lifted her head, defiant. "Your Robert got me with child once," she said, her voice thick with
contempt. "My brother found a woman to cleanse me. He never knew, If truth be told, I can scarcely
bear for him to touch me, and I have not let him inside me for years. I know other ways to pleasure him,
when he leaves his whores long enough to stagger up to my bedchamber. Whatever we do, the king is
usually so drunk that he's forgotten it all by the next morning."
How could they have all been so blind? The truth was there in front
of them all the time, written on the children's faces. Ned felt sick. "I remember Robert as he was the day
he took the throne, every inch a king," he said quietly. "A thousand other women might have loved him
with all their hearts. What did he do to make you hate him so?"
Her eyes burned, green fire in the dusk, like the lioness that was her sigil. "The night of our wedding
feast, the first time we shared a bed, he called me by your sister's name. He was on top of me, in me,
stinking of wine, and he whispered Lyanna. "
Ned Stark thought of pale blue roses, and for a moment he wanted to weep. "I do not know which of
you I pity most."


The queen seemed amused by that. "Save your pity for yourself, Lord Stark. I want none of it."
"You know what I must do."
"Must?" She put her hand on his good leg, just above the knee. "A true man does what he will, not what
he must." Her fingers brushed lightly against his thigh, the gentlest of promises. "The realm needs a strong
Hand. Joff will not come of age for years. No one wants war again, least of all me." Her hand touched his
face, his hair. "If friends can turn to enemies, enemies can become friends. Your wife is a thousand
leagues away, and my brother has fled. Be kind to me, Ned. I swear to you, you shall never regret it."
"Did you make the same offer to Jon Arryn?"
She slapped him.
"I shall wear that as a badge of honor," Ned said dryly.
"Honor, " she spat. "How dare you play the noble lord with me! What do you take me for? You've a
bastard of your own, I've seen him. Who was the mother, I wonder? Some Dornish peasant you raped
while her holdfast burned? A whore? Or was it the grieving sister, the Lady Ashara? She threw herself
into the sea, I'm told. Why was that? For the brother you slew, or the child you stole? Tell me, my
honorable Lord Eddard, how are you any different from Robert, or me, or Jaime?"
"For a start," said Ned, "I do not kill children. You would do well to listen, my lady. I shall say this only
once. When the king returns from his hunt, I intend to lay the truth before him. You must be gone by then.
You and your children, all three, and not to Casterly Rock. If I were you, I should take ship for the Free
Cities, or even farther, to the Summer Isles or the Port of Ibben. As far as the winds blow."
"Exile," she said. "A bitter cup to drink from."
"A sweeter cup than your father served Rhaegar's children," Ned said, "and kinder than you deserve.
Your father and your brothers would do well to go with you. Lord Tywin's gold will buy you comfort
and hire swords to keep you safe. You shall need them. I promise you, no matter where you flee,
Robert's wrath will follow you, to the back of beyond if need be."
The queen stood. "And what of my wrath, Lord Stark?" she asked softly. Her eyes searched his face.
"You should have taken the realm for yourself. It was there for the taking. Jaime told me how you found
him on the Iron Throne the day King's Landing fell, and made him yield it up. That was your moment. All
you needed to do was climb those steps, and sit. Such a sad mistake."
"I have made more mistakes than you can possibly imagine," Ned said, "but that was not one of them."
"Oh, but it was, my lord," Cersei insisted. "When you play the game of thrones, you win or you die.
There is no middle ground."
She turned up her hood to hide her swollen face and left him there in the dark beneath the oak, amidst
the quiet of the godswood, under a blue-black sky. The stars were coming out.


DAENERYS
The heart was steaming in the cool evening air when Khal Drogo set it before her, raw and bloody. His
arms were red to the elbow. Behind him, his bloodriders knelt on the sand beside the corpse of the wild
stallion, stone knives in their hands. The stallion's blood looked black in the flickering orange glare of the
torches that ringed the high chalk walls of the pit.
Dany touched the soft swell of her belly. Sweat beaded her skin and trickled down her brow. She could
feel the old women watching her, the ancient crones of Vaes Dothrak, with eyes that shone dark as
polished flint in their wrinkled faces. She must not flinch or look afraid. I am the blood of the dragon, she
told herself as she took the stallion's heart in both hands, lifted it to her mouth, and plunged her teeth into
the tough, stringy flesh.
Warm blood filled her mouth and ran down over her chin. The taste threatened to gag her, but she made
herself chew and swallow. The heart of a stallion would make her son strong and swift and fearless, or so
the Dothraki believed, but only if the mother could eat it all. If she choked on the blood or retched up the
flesh, the omens were less favorable; the child might be stillborn, or come forth weak, deformed, or
female.
Her handmaids had helped her ready herself for the ceremony. Despite the tender mother's stomach that
had afflicted her these past
two moons, Dany had dined on bowls of half-clotted blood to accustom herself to the taste, and Irri
made her chew strips of dried horseflesh until her jaws were aching. She had starved herself for a day
and a night before the ceremony in the hopes that hunger would help her keep down the raw meat.
The wild stallion's heart was all muscle, and Dany had to worry it with her teeth and chew each mouthful
a long time. No steel was permitted within the sacred confines of Vaes Dothrak, beneath the shadow of
the Mother of Mountains; she had to rip the heart apart with teeth and nails. Her stomach roiled and
heaved, yet she kept on, her face smeared with the heartsblood that sometimes seemed to explode
against her lips.
Khal Drogo stood over her as she ate, his face as hard as a bronze shield. His long black braid was
shiny with oil. He wore gold rings in his mustache, gold bells in his braid, and a heavy belt of solid gold
medallions around his waist, but his chest was bare. She looked at him whenever she felt her strength
failing; looked at him, and chewed and swallowed, chewed and swallowed, chewed and swallowed.
Toward the end, Dany thought she glimpsed a fierce pride in his dark, almondshaped eyes, but she could
not be sure. The khal's face did not often betray the thoughts within.
And finally it was done. Her cheeks and fingers were sticky as she forced down the last of it. Only then
did she turn her eyes back to the old women, the crones of the dosh khaleen.
"Khalakka dothrae mranha!" she proclaimed in her best Dothraki. A prince tides inside me! She had
practiced the phrase for days with her handmaid Jhiqui.
The oldest of the crones, a bent and shriveled stick of a woman with a single black eye, raised her arms
on high. "Khalakka dothrae!" she shrieked. The prince is tiding!


"He is tiding!" the other women answered. "Rakh! Rakh! Rakh haj!" they proclaimed. A boy, a boy, a
strong boy.
Bells rang, a sudden clangor of bronze birds. A deep-throated warhorn sounded its long low note. The
old women began to chant. Underneath their painted leather vests, their withered dugs swayed back and
forth, shiny with oil and sweat. The eunuchs who served them threw bundles of dried grasses into a great
bronze brazier, and clouds of fragrant smoke rose up toward the moon and the stars. The Dothraki
believed the stars were horses made of fire, a great herd that galloped across the sky by night.
As the smoke ascended, the chanting died away and the ancient crone closed her single eye, the better
to peer into the future. The
silence that fell was complete. Dany could hear the distant call of night birds, the hiss and crackle of the
torches, the gentle lapping of water from the lake. The Dothraki stared at her with eyes of night, waiting.
Khal Drogo laid his hand on Dany's arm. She could feel the tension in his fingers. Even a khal as mighty
as Drogo could know fear when the dosh khaleen peered into smoke of the future. At her back, her
handmaids fluttered anxiously.
Finally the crone opened her eye and lifted her arms. "I have seen his face, and heard the thunder of his
hooves," she proclaimed in a thin, wavery voice.
"The thunder of his hooves!" the others chorused.
"As swift as the wind he rides, and behind him his khalasar covers the earth, men without number, with
arakhs shining in their hands like blades of razor grass. Fierce as a storm this prince will be. His enemies
will tremble before him, and their wives will weep tears of blood and rend their flesh in grief. The bells in
his hair will sing his coming, and the milk men in the stone tents will fear his name." The old woman
trembled and looked at Dany almost as if she were afraid. "The prince is riding, and he shall be the
stallion who mounts the world."
"The stallion who mounts the world!" the onlookers cried in echo, until the night rang to the sound of
their voices.
The one-eyed crone peered at Dany. "What shall he be called, the stallion who mounts the world?"
She stood to answer. "He shall be called Rhaego," she said, using the words that Jhiqui had taught her.
Her hands touched the swell beneath her breasts protectively as a roar went up from the Dothraki.
"Rhaego, " they screamed. "Rhaego, Rhaego, Rhaego!"
The name was still ringing in her ears as Khal Drogo led her from the pit. His bloodriders fell in behind
them. A procession followed them out onto the godsway, the broad grassy road that ran through the
heart of Vaes Dothrak, from the horse gate to the Mother of Mountains. The crones of the dosh khaleen
came first, with their eunuchs and slaves. Some supported themselves with tall carved staffs as they
struggled along on ancient, shaking legs, while others walked as proud as any horselord. Each of the old
women had been a khaleesi once. When their lord husbands died and a new khal took his place at the
front of his riders, with a new khaleesi mounted beside him, they were sent here, to reign over the vast
Dothraki nation. Even the mightiest of khals bowed to the wisdom and authority of the dosh khaleen.


Still, it gave Dany the shivers to think that one day she might be sent to join them, whether she willed it or
no.
Behind the wise women came the others; Khal Ogo and his son, the
khalakka Fogo, Khal Jommo and his wives, the chief men of Drogo's khalasar, Dany's handmaids, the
khal's servants and slaves, and more. Bells rang and drums beat a stately cadence as they marched along
the godsway. Stolen heroes and the gods of dead peoples brooded in the darkness beyond the road.
Alongside the procession, slaves ran lightly through the grass with torches in their hands, and the
flickering flames made the great monuments seem almost alive.
"What is meaning, name Rhaego?" Khal Drogo asked as they walked, using the Common Tongue of the
Seven Kingdoms. She had been teaching him a few words when she could. Drogo was quick to learn
when he put his mind to it, though his accent was so thick and barbarous that neither Ser Jorah nor
Viserys could understand a word he said.
"My brother Rhaegar was a fierce warrior, my sun-and-stars," she told him. "He died before I was born.
Ser Jorah says that he was the last of the dragons."
Khal Drogo looked down at her. His face was a copper mask, yet under the long black mustache,
drooping beneath the weight of its gold rings, she thought she glimpsed the shadow of a smile. "Is good
name, Dan Ares wife, moon of my life," he said.
They rode to the lake the Dothraki called the Womb of the World, surrounded by a fringe of reeds, its
water still and calm. A thousand thousand years ago, Jhiqui told her, the first man had emerged from its
depths, riding upon the back of the first horse.
The procession waited on the grassy shore as Dany stripped and let her soiled clothing fall to the ground.
Naked, she stepped gingerly into the water. Irri said the lake had no bottom, but Dany felt soft mud
squishing between her toes as she pushed through the tall reeds. The moon floated on the still black
waters, shattering and re-forming as her ripples washed over it. Goose pimples rose on her pale skin as
the coldness crept up her thighs and kissed her lower lips. The stallion's blood had dried on her hands
and around her mouth. Dany cupped her fingers and lifted the sacred waters over her head, cleansing
herself and the child inside her while the khal and the others looked on. She heard the old women of the
dosh khaleen muttering to each other as they watched, and wondered what they were saying.
When she emerged from the lake, shivering and dripping, her handmaid Doreah hurried to her with a
robe of painted sandsilk, but Khal Drogo waved her away. He was looking on her swollen breasts and
the curve of her belly with approval, and Dany could see the shape of his manhood pressing through his
horsehide trousers, below the heavy gold medallions of his belt. She went to him and helped him unlace.
Then her huge khal took her by the hips and lifted her into the air, as he might lift a child. The bells in his
hair rang softly.
Dany wrapped her arms around his shoulders and pressed her face against his neck as he thrust himself
inside her. Three quick strokes and it was done. "The stallion who mounts the world, " Drogo whispered
hoarsely. His hands still smelled of horse blood. He bit at her throat, hard, in the moment of his pleasure,


and when he lifted her off, his seed filled her and trickled down the inside of her thighs. Only then was
Doreah permitted to drape her in the scented sandsilk, and Irri to fit soft slippers to her feet.
Khal Drogo laced himself up and spoke a command, and horses were brought to the lakeshore. Cohollo
had the honor of helping the khaleesi onto her silver. Drogo spurred his stallion, and set off down the
godsway beneath the moon and stars. On her silver, Dany easily kept pace.
The silk tenting that roofed Khal Drogo's hall had been rolled up tonight, and the moon followed them
inside. Flames leapt ten feet in the air from three huge stone-lined firepits. The air was thick with the
smells of roasting meat and curdled, fermented mare's milk. The hall was crowded and noisy when they
entered, the cushions packed with those whose rank and name were not sufficient to allow them at the
ceremony. As Dany rode beneath the arched entry and up the center aisle, every eye was on her. The
Dothraki screamed out comments on her belly and her breasts, hailing the life within her. She could not
understand all they shouted, but one phrase came clear. "The stallion that mounts the world, " she heard,
bellowed in a thousand voices.
The sounds of drums and horns swirled up into the night. Halfclothed women spun and danced on the
low tables, amid joints of meat and platters piled high with plums and dates and pomegranates. Many of
the men were drunk on clotted mare's milk, yet Dany knew no arakhs would clash tonight, not here in the
sacred city, where blades and bloodshed were forbidden.
Khal Drogo dismounted and took his place on the high bench. Khal Jommo and Khal Ogo, who had
been in Vaes Dothrak with their khalasars when they arrived, were given seats of high honor to Drogo's
right and left. The bloodriders of the three khals sat below them, and farther down Khal Jommo's four
wives.
Dany climbed off her silver and gave the reins to one of the slaves. As Doreah and Irri arranged her
cushions, she searched for her brother. Even across the length of the crowded hall, Viserys should have
been conspicuous with his pale skin, silvery hair, and beggar's rags, but she did not see him anywhere.
Her glance roamed the crowded tables near the walls, where men whose braids were even shorter than
their manhoods sat on frayed rugs and flat cushions around the low tables, but all the faces she saw had
black eyes and copper skin. She spied Ser Jorah Mormont near the center of the hall, close to the middle
firepit. It was a place of respect, if not high honor; the Dothraki esteemed the knight's prowess with a
sword. Dany sent Jhiqui to bring him to her table. Mormont came at once, and went to one knee before
her. "Khaleesi, " he said, "I am yours to command."
She patted the stuffed horsehide cushion beside her. "Sit and talk with me."
"You honor me." The knight seated himself cross-legged on the cushion. A slave knelt before him,
offering a wooden platter full of ripe figs. Ser Jorah took one and bit it in half.
"Where is my brother?" Dany asked. "He ought to have come by now, for the feast."
"I saw His Grace this morning," he told her. "He told me he was going to the Western Market, in search
of wine."
"Wine?" Dany said doubtfully. Viserys could not abide the taste of the fermented mare's milk the
Dothraki drank, she knew that, and he was oft at the bazaars these days, drinking with the traders who


came in the great caravans from east and west. He seemed to find their company more congenial than
hers.
"Wine," Ser Jorah confirmed, "and he has some thought to recruit men for his army from the sellswords
who guard the caravans." A serving girl laid a blood pie in front of him, and he attacked it with both
hands.
"Is that wise?" she asked. "He has no gold to pay soldiers. What if he's betrayed?" Caravan guards were
seldom troubled much by thoughts of honor, and the Usurper in King's Landing would pay well for her
brother's head. "You ought to have gone with him, to keep him safe. You are his sworn sword."
"We are in Vaes Dothrak," he reminded her. "No one may carry a blade here or shed a man's blood."
"Yet men die," she said. "Jhogo told me. Some of the traders have eunuchs with them, huge men who
strangle thieves with wisps of silk. That way no blood is shed and the gods are not angered."
"Then let us hope your brother will be wise enough not to steal anything." Ser Jorah wiped the grease off
his mouth with the back of his hand and leaned close over the table. "He had planned to take your
dragon's eggs, until I warned him that I'd cut off his hand if he so much as touched them."
For a moment Dany was so shocked she had no words. "My eggs ... but they're mine, Magister Illyrio
gave them to me, a bride gift, why would Viserys want . . . they're only stones . . ."
"The same could be said of rubies and diamonds and fire opals, Princess . . . and dragon's eggs are rarer
by far. Those traders he's been drinking with would sell their own manhoods for even one of those
stones, and with all three Viserys could buy as many sellswords as he might need."
Dany had not known, had not even suspected. "Then . . . he should have them. He does not need to
steal them. He had only to ask. He is my brother . . . and my true king."
"He is your brother," Ser Jorah acknowledged.
"You do not understand, ser," she said. "My mother died giving me birth, and my father and my brother
Rhaegar even before that. I would never have known so much as their names if Viserys had not been
there to tell me. He was the only one left. The only one. He is all I have."
"Once," said Ser Jorah. "No longer, Khaleesi. You belong to the Dothraki now. In your womb rides the
stallion who mounts the world." He held out his cup, and a slave filled it with fermented mare's milk,
sour-smelling and thick with clots.
Dany waved her away. Even the smell of it made her feel ill, and she would take no chances of bringing
up the horse heart she had forced herself to eat. "What does it mean?" she asked. "What is this stallion?
Everyone was shouting it at me, but I don't understand."
"The stallion is the khal of khals promised in ancient prophecy, child. He will unite the Dothraki into a
single khalasar and ride to the ends of the earth, or so it was promised. All the people of the world will
be his herd."
"Oh," Dany said in a small voice. Her hand smoothed her robe down over the swell of her stomach. "I


named him Rhaego."
"A name to make the Usurper's blood run cold."
Suddenly Doreah was tugging at her elbow. "My lady, " the handmaid whispered urgently, "your brother
. . ."
Dany looked down the length of the long, roofless hall and there he was, striding toward her. From the
lurch in his step, she could tell at once that Viserys had found his wine . . . and something that passed for
courage.
He was wearing his scarlet silks, soiled and travel-stained. His cloak and gloves were black velvet,
faded from the sun. His boots were dry and cracked, his silver-blond hair matted and tangled. A
longsword
swung from his belt in a leather scabbard. The Dothraki eyed the sword as he passed; Dany heard
curses and threats and angry muttering rising all around her, like a tide. The music died away in a nervous
stammering of drums.
A sense of dread closed around her heart. "Go to him," she commanded Ser Jorah. "Stop him. Bring him
here. Tell him he can have the dragon's eggs if that is what he wants." The knight rose swiftly to his feet.
"Where is my sister?" Viserys shouted, his voice thick with wine. "I've come for her feast. How dare you
presume to eat without me? No one eats before the king. Where is she? The whore can't hide from the
dragon."
He stopped beside the largest of the three firepits, peering around at the faces of the Dothraki. There
were five thousand men in the hall, but only a handful who knew the Common Tongue. Yet even if his
words were incomprehensible, you had only to look at him to know that he was drunk.
Ser Jorah went to him swiftly, whispered something in his ear, and took him by the arm, but Viserys
wrenched free. "Keep your hands off me! No one touches the dragon without leave."
Dany glanced anxiously up at the high bench. Khal Drogo was saying something to the other khals
beside him. Khal Jommo grinned, and Khal Ogo began to guffaw loudly.
The sound of laughter made Viserys lift his eyes. "Khal Drogo," he said thickly, his voice almost polite.
"I'm here for the feast." He staggered away from Ser Jorah, making to join the three khals on the high
bench.
Khal Drogo rose, spat out a dozen words in Dothraki, faster than Dany could understand, and pointed.
"Khal Drogo says your place is not on the high bench," Ser Jorah translated for her brother. "Khal Drogo
says your place is there."
Viserys glanced where the khal was pointing. At the back of the long hall, in a corner by the wall, deep
in shadow so better men would not need to look on them, sat the lowest of the low; raw unblooded
boys, old men with clouded eyes and stiff joints, the dim-witted and the maimed. Far from the meat, and
farther from honor. "That is no place for a king," her brother declared.


"Is place," Khal Drogo answered, in the Common Tongue that Dany had taught him, "for Sorefoot
King." He clapped his hands together. "A cart! Bring cart for Khal Rhaggat! "
Five thousand Dothraki began to laugh and shout. Ser Jorah was
standing beside Viserys, screaming in his ear, but the roar in the hall was so thunderous that Dany could
not hear what he was saying. Her brother shouted back and the two men grappled, until Mormont
knocked Viserys bodily to the floor.
Her brother drew his sword.
The bared steel shone a fearful red in the glare from the firepits. "Keep away from me!" Viserys hissed.
Ser Jorah backed off a step, and her brother climbed unsteadily to his feet. He waved the sword over his
head, the borrowed blade that Magister Illyrio had given him to make him seem more kingly. Dothraki
were shrieking at him from all sides, screaming vile curses.
Dany gave a wordless cry of terror. She knew what a drawn sword meant here, even if her brother did
not.
Her voice made Viserys turn his head, and he saw her for the first time. "There she is," he said, smiling.
He stalked toward her, slashing at the air as if to cut a path through a wall of enemies, though no one
tried to bar his way.
"The blade . . . you must not," she begged him. "Please, Viserys. It is forbidden. Put down the sword
and come share my cushions. There's drink, food . . . is it the dragon's eggs you want? You can have
them, only throw away the sword."
"Do as she tells you, fool," Ser Jorah shouted, "before you get us all killed."
Viserys laughed. "They can't kill us. They can't shed blood here in the sacred city . . . but I can." He laid
the point of his sword between Daenerys's breasts and slid it downward, over the curve of her belly. "I
want what I came for," he told her. "I want the crown he promised me. He bought you, but he never paid
for you. Tell him I want what I bargained for, or I'm taking you back. You and the eggs both. He can
keep his bloody foal. I'll cut the bastard out and leave it for him." The sword point pushed through her
silks and pricked at her navel. Viserys was weeping, she saw; weeping and laughing, both at the same
time, this man who had once been her brother.
Distantly, as from far away, Dany heard her handmaid Jhiqui sobbing in fear, pleading that she dared not
translate, that the khal would bind her and drag her behind his horse all the way up the Mother of
Mountains. She put her arm around the girl. "Don't be afraid," she said. "I shall tell him."
She did not know if she had enough words, yet when she was done Khal Drogo spoke a few brusque
sentences in Dothraki, and she knew he understood. The sun of her life stepped down from the high
bench.
"What did he say?" the man who had been her brother asked her, flinching.


It had grown so silent in the hall that she could hear the bells in Khal Drogo's hair, chiming softly with
each step he took. His bloodriders followed him, like three copper shadows. Daenerys had gone cold all
over. "He says you shall have a splendid golden crown that men shall tremble to behold."
Viserys smiled and lowered his sword. That was the saddest thing, the thing that tore at her afterward . .
. the way he smiled. "That was all I wanted," he said. "What was promised."
When the sun of her life reached her, Dany slid an arm around his waist. The khal said a word, and his
bloodriders leapt forward. Qotho seized the man who had been her brother by the arms. Haggo
shattered his wrist with a single, sharp twist of his huge hands. Cohollo pulled the sword from his limp
fingers. Even now Viserys did not understand. "No," he shouted, "you cannot touch me, I am the dragon,
the dragon, and I will be crowned!"
Khal Drogo unfastened his belt. The medallions were pure gold, massive and ornate, each one as large
as a man's hand. He shouted a command. Cook slaves pulled a heavy iron stew pot from the firepit,
dumped the stew onto the ground, and returned the pot to the flames. Drogo tossed in the belt and
watched without expression as the medallions turned red and began to lose their shape. She could see
fires dancing in the onyx of his eyes. A slave handed him a pair of thick horsehair mittens, and he pulled
them on, never so much as looking at the man.
Viserys began to scream the high, wordless scream of the coward facing death. He kicked and twisted,
whimpered like a dog and wept like a child, but the Dothraki held him tight between them. Ser Jorah had
made his way to Dany's side. He put a hand on her shoulder. "Turn away, my princess, I beg you."
"No." She folded her arms across the swell of her belly, protectively.
At the last, Viserys looked at her. "Sister, please . . . Dany, tell them . . . make them . . . sweet sister . .
."
When the gold was half-melted and starting to run, Drogo reached into the flames, snatched out the pot.
"Crown!" he roared. "Here. A crown for Cart King!" And upended the pot over the head of the man
who had been her brother.
The sound Viserys Targaryen made when that hideous iron helmet covered his face was like nothing
human. His feet hammered a frantic
beat against the dirt floor, slowed, stopped. Thick globs of molten gold dripped down onto his chest,
setting the scarlet silk to smoldering . . . yet no drop of blood was spilled.
He was no dragon, Dany thought, curiously calm. Fire cannot kill a dragon.
EDDARD
He was walking through the crypts beneath Winterfell, as he hhad walked a thousand times before. The
Kings of Winter atched him pass with eyes of ice, and the direwolves at their feet turned their great stone
heads and snarled. Last of all, he came to the tomb where his father slept, with Brandon and Lyanna
beside him. "Promise me, Ned, " Lyanna's statue whispered. She wore a garland of pale blue roses, and


her eyes wept blood.
Eddard Stark jerked upright, his heart racing, the blankets tangled around him. The room was black as
pitch, and someone was hammering on the door. "Lord Eddard," a voice called loudly.
"A moment." Groggy and naked, he stumbled his way across the darkened chamber. When he opened
the door, he found Tomard with an upraised fist, and Cayn with a taper in hand. Between them stood the
king's own steward.
The man's face might have been carved of stone, so little did it show. "My lord Hand," he intoned. "His
Grace the King commands your presence. At once."
So Robert had returned from his hunt. It was long past time. "I shall need a few moments to dress." Ned
left the man waiting without. Cayn helped him with his clothes; white linen tunic and grey cloak, trousers
cut open down his plaster-sheathed leg, his badge of office, and last of
all a belt of heavy silver links. He sheathed the Valyrian dagger at his waist.
The Red Keep was dark and still as Cayn and Tomard escorted him across the inner bailey. The moon
hung low over the walls, ripening toward full. On the ramparts, a guardsman in a gold cloak walked his
rounds.
The royal apartments were in Maegor's Holdfast, a massive square fortress that nestled in the heart of
the Red Keep behind walls twelve feet thick and a dry moat lined with iron spikes, a
castle-within-acastle. Ser Boros Blount guarded the far end of the bridge, white steel armor ghostly in the
moonlight. Within, Ned passed two other knights of the Kingsguard; Ser Preston Greenfield stood at the
bottom of the steps, and Ser Barristan Selmy waited at the door of the king's bedchamber. Three men in
white cloaks, he thought, remembering, and a strange chill went through him. Ser Barristan's face was as
pale as his armor. Ned had only to look at him to know that something was dreadfully wrong. The royal
steward opened the door. "Lord Eddard Stark, the Hand of the King," he announced.
"Bring him here," Robert's voice called, strangely thick.
Fires blazed in the twin hearths at either end of the bedchamber, filling the room with a sullen red glare.
The heat within was suffocating. Robert lay across the canopied bed. At the bedside hovered Grand
Maester Pycelle, while Lord Renly paced restlessly before the shuttered windows. Servants moved back
and forth, feeding logs to the fire and boiling wine. Cersei Lannister sat on the edge of the bed beside her
husband. Her hair was tousled, as if from sleep, but there was nothing sleepy in her eyes. They followed
Ned as Tomard and Cayn helped him cross the room. He seemed to move very slowly, as if he were still
dreaming.
The king still wore his boots. Ned could see dried mud and blades of grass clinging to the leather where
Robert's feet stuck out beneath the blanket that covered him, A green doublet lay on the floor, slashed
open and discarded, the cloth crusted with red-brown stains. The room smelled of smoke and blood and
death.
"Ned," the king whispered when he saw him. His face was pale as milk. "Come . . . closer."
His men brought him close. Ned steadied himself with a hand on the bedpost. He had only to look down


at Robert to know how bad it was. "What . . . ?" he began, his throat clenched.
"A boar." Lord Renly was still in his hunting greens, his cloak spattered with blood.
"A devil," the king husked. "My own fault. Too much wine, damn me to hell. Missed my thrust."
"And where were the rest of you?" Ned demanded of Lord Renly. "Where was Ser Barristan and the
Kingsguard?"
Renly's mouth twitched. "My brother commanded us to stand aside and let him take the boar alone."
Eddard Stark lifted the blanket.
They had done what they could to close him up, but it was nowhere near enough. The boar must have
been a fearsome thing. It had ripped the king from groin to nipple with its tusks. The wine-soaked
bandages that Grand Maester Pycelle had applied were already black with blood, and the smell off the
wound was hideous. Ned's stomach turned. He let the blanket fall.
"Stinks," Robert said. "The stink of death, don't think I can't smell it. Bastard did me good, eh? But I . . .
I paid him back in kind, Ned." The king's smile was as terrible as his wound, his teeth red. "Drove a knife
right through his eye. Ask them if I didn't. Ask them."
"Truly," Lord Renly murmured. "We brought the carcass back with us, at my brother's command."
"For the feast," Robert whispered. "Now leave us. The lot of you. I need to speak with Ned."
"Robert, my sweet lord Cersei began.
"I said leave," Robert insisted with a hint of his old fierceness. "What part of that don't you understand,
woman?"
Cersei gathered up her skirts and her dignity and led the way to the door. Lord Renly and the others
followed. Grand Maester Pycelle lingered, his hands shaking as he offered the king a cup of thick white
liquid. "The milk of the poppy, Your Grace," he said. "Drink. For your pain."
Robert knocked the cup away with the back of his hand. "Away with you. I'll sleep soon enough, old
fool. Get out."
Grand Maester Pycelle gave Ned a stricken look as he shuffled from the room.
"Damn you, Robert," Ned said when they were alone. His leg was throbbing so badly he was almost
blind with pain. Or perhaps it was grief that fogged his eyes. He lowered himself to the bed, beside his
friend. "Why do you always have to be so headstrong?"
"Ah, fuck you, Ned," the king said hoarsely. "I killed the bastard, didn't IT' A lock of matted black hair
fell across his eyes as he glared up at Ned. "Ought to do the same for you. Can't leave a man to hunt in
peace. Ser Robar found me. Gregor's head. Ugly thought. Never told the Hound. Let Cersei surprise
him." His laugh turned into a grunt as


a spasm of pain hit him. "Gods have mercy," he muttered, swallowing his agony. "The girl. Daenerys.
Only a child, you were right ... that's why, the girl . . . the gods sent the boar . . . sent to punish me . . ."
The king coughed, bringing up blood. "Wrong, it was wrong, I . . . only a girl . . . Varys, Littlefinger, even
my brother . . . worthless . . . no one to tell me no but you, Ned . . . only you . . ." He lifted his hand, the
gesture pained and feeble. "Paper and ink. There, on the table. Write what I tell you."
Ned smoothed the paper out across his knee and took up the quill. "At your command, Your Grace."
"This is the will and word of Robert of House Baratheon, the First of his Name, King of the Andals and
all the rest-put in the damn titles, you know how it goes. I do hereby command Eddard of House Stark,
Lord of Winterfell and Hand of the King, to serve as Lord Regent and Protector of the Realm upon my .
. . upon my death . . . to rule in my . . . in my stead, until my son Joffrey does come of age . . .
"Robert Joffirey is not your son, he wanted to say, but the words would not come. The agony was
written too plainly across Robert's face; he could not hurt him more. So Ned bent his head and wrote,
but where the king had said "my son Joffrey," he scrawled "my heir" instead. The deceit made him feel
soiled. The lies we tellfor love, he thought. May the gods forgive me. "What else would you have me
say?"
"Say . . . whatever you need to. Protect and defend, gods old and new, you have the words. Write. I'll
sign it. You give it to the council when I'm dead."
"Robert," Ned said in a voice thick with grief, "you must not do this. Don't die on me. The realm needs
you."
Robert took his hand, fingers squeezing hard. "You are . . . such a bad liar, Ned Stark," he said through
his pain. "The realm . . . the realm knows . . . what a wretched king I've been. Bad as Aerys, the gods
spare me."
"No," Ned told his dying friend, "not so bad as Aerys, Your Grace. Not near so bad as Aerys."
Robert managed a weak red smile. "At the least, they will say . . . this last thing . . . this I did right. You
won't fail me. You'll rule now. You'll hate it, worse than I did . . . but you'll do well. Are you done with
the scribbling?"
"Yes, Your Grace." Ned offered Robert the paper. The king scrawled his signature blindly, leaving a
smear of blood across the letter. "The seal should be witnessed."
"Serve the boar at my funeral feast," Robert rasped. "Apple in its mouth, skin seared crisp. Eat the
bastard. Don't care if you choke on him. Promise me, Ned."
"I promise." Promise me, Ned, Lyanna's voice echoed.
"The girl," the king said. "Daenerys. Let her live. If you can, if it . . . not too late . . . talk to them . . .
Varys, Littlefinger . . . don't let them kill her. And help my son, Ned. Make him be . . . better than me."
He winced. "Gods have mercy."


"They will, my friend," Ned said. "They will."
The king closed his eyes and seemed to relax. "Killed by a pig," he muttered. "Ought to laugh, but it
hurts too much."
Ned was not laughing. "Shall I call them back?"
Robert gave a weak nod. "As you will. Gods, why is it so cold in here?"
The servants rushed back in and hurried to feed the fires. The queen had gone; that was some small
relief, at least. If she had any sense, Cersei would take her children and fly before the break of day, Ned
thought. She had lingered too long already.
King Robert did not seem to miss her. He bid his brother Renly and Grand Maester Pycelle to stand in
witness as he pressed his seal into the hot yellow wax that Ned had dripped upon his letter. "Now give
me something for the pain and let me die."
Hurriedly Grand Maester Pycelle mixed him another draught of the milk of the poppy. This time the king
drank deeply. His black beard was beaded with thick white droplets when he threw the empty cup aside.
"Will I dream?"
Ned gave him his answer. "You will, my lord."
"Good," he said, smiling. "I will give Lyanna your love, Ned. Take care of my children for me."
The words twisted in Ned's belly like a knife. For a moment he was at a loss. He could not bring himself
to lie. Then he remembered the bastards: little Barra at her mother's breast, Mya in the Vale, Gendry at
his forge, and all the others. "I shall . . . guard your children as if they were my own," he said slowly.
Robert nodded and closed his eyes. Ned watched his old friend sag softly into the pillows as the milk of
the poppy washed the pain from his face. Sleep took him.
Heavy chains jangled softly as Grand Maester Pycelle came up to Ned. "I will do all in my power, my
lord, but the wound has mortified. It took them two days to get him back. By the time I saw him, it was
too late. I can lessen His Grace's suffering, but only the gods can heal him now."
"How long?" Ned asked.
"By rights, he should be dead already. I have never seen a man cling to life so fiercely."
"My brother was always strong," Lord Renly said. "Not wise, perhaps, but strong." In the sweltering
heat of the bedchamber, his brow was slick with sweat. He might have been Robert's ghost as he stood
there, young and dark and handsome. "He slew the boar. His entrails were sliding from his belly, yet
somehow he slew the boar." His voice was full of wonder.
"Robert was never a man to leave the battleground so long as a foe remained standing," Ned told him.
Outside the door, Ser Barristan Selmy still guarded the tower stairs. "Maester Pycelle has given Robert
the milk of the poppy," Ned told him. "See that no one disturbs his rest without leave from me."


" It shall be as you command, my lord." Ser Barristan seemed old beyond his years. "I have failed my
sacred trust."
"Even the truest knight cannot protect a king against himself," Ned said. "Robert loved to hunt boar. I
have seen him take a thousand of them." He would stand his ground without flinching, his legs braced, the
great spear in his hands, and as often as not he would curse the boar as it charged, and wait until the last
possible second, until it was almost on him, before he killed it with a single sure and savage thrust. "No
one could know this one would be his death."
"You are kind to say so, Lord Eddard."
"The king himself said as much. He blamed the wine."
The white-haired knight gave a weary nod. "His Grace was reeling in his saddle by the time we flushed
the boar from his lair, yet he commanded us all to stand aside."
" I wonder, Ser Barristan," asked Varys, so quietly, "who gave the king this wine?"
Ned had not heard the eunuch approach, but when he looked around, there he stood. He wore a black
velvet robe that brushed the floor, and his face was freshly powdered.
"The wine was from the king's own skin," Ser Barristan said.
"Only one skin? Hunting is such thirsty work."
"I did not keep count. More than one, for a certainty. His squire would fetch him a fresh skin whenever
he required it."
"Such a dutiful boy," said Varys, "to make certain His Grace did not lack for refreshment."
Ned had a bitter taste in his mouth. He recalled the two fair-haired boys Robert had sent chasing after a
breastplate stretcher. The king
had told everyone the tale that night at the feast, laughing until he shook. "Which squire?"
"The elder," said Ser Barristan. "Lancel."
"I know the lad well," said Varys. "A stalwart boy, Ser Kevan Lannister's son, nephew to Lord Tywin
and cousin to the queen. I hope the dear sweet lad does not blame himself. Children are so vulnerable in
the innocence of their youth, how well do I remember."
Certainly Varys had once been young. Ned doubted that he had ever been innocent. "You mention
children. Robert had a change of heart concerning Daenerys Targaryen. Whatever arrangements you
made, I want unmade. At once."
"Alas," said Varys. "At once may be too late. I fear those birds have flown. But I shall do what I can, my
lord. With your leave." He bowed and vanished down the steps, his soft-soled slippers whispering
against the stone as he made his descent.


Cayn and Tomard were helping Ned across the bridge when Lord Renly emerged from Maegor's
Holdfast. "Lord Eddard," he called after Ned, "a moment, if you would be so kind."
Ned stopped. "As you wish."
Renly walked to his side. "Send your men away." They met in the center of the bridge, the dry moat
beneath them. Moonlight silvered the cruel edges of the spikes that lined its bed.
Ned gestured. Tomard and Cayn bowed their heads and backed away respectfully. Lord Renly glanced
warily at Ser Boros on the far end of the span, at Ser Preston in the doorway behind them. "That letter."
He leaned close. "Was it the regency? Has my brother named you Protector?" He did not wait for a
reply. "My lord, I have thirty men in my personal guard, and other friends beside, knights and lords. Give
me an hour, and I can put a hundred swords in your hand."
"And what should I do with a hundred swords, my lord?"
"Strike! Now, while the castle sleeps." Renly looked back at Ser Boros again and dropped his voice to
an urgent whisper. "We must get Joffrey away from his mother and take him in hand. Protector or no, the
man who holds the king holds the kingdom. We should seize Myrcella and Tommen as well. Once we
have her children, Cersei will not dare oppose us. The council will confirm you as Lord Protector and
make Joffrey your ward."
Ned regarded him coldly. "Robert is not dead yet. The gods may spare him. If not, I shall convene the
council to hear his final words and consider the matter of the succession, but I will not dishonor his last
hours on earth by shedding blood in his halls and dragging frightened children from their beds."
Lord Renly took a step back, taut as a bowstring. "Every moment you delay gives Cersei another
moment to prepare. By the time Robert dies, it may be too late . . . for both of us."
"Then we should pray that Robert does not die."
"Small chance of that," said Renly.
"Sometimes the gods are merciful."
"The Lannisters are not." Lord Renly turned away and went back across the moat, to the tower where
his brother lay dying.
By the time Ned returned to his chambers, he felt weary and heartsick, yet there was no question of his
going back to sleep, not now. When you play the game of thrones, you win or you die, Cersei Lannister
had told him in the godswood. He found himself wondering if he had done the right thing by refusing Lord
Renly's offer. He had no taste for these intrigues, and there was no honor in threatening children, and yet .
. . if Cersei elected to fight rather than flee, he might well have need of Renly's hundred swords, and more
besides.
"I want Littlefinger," he told Cayn. "If he's not in his chambers, take as many men as you need and
search every winesink and whorehouse in King's Landing until you find him. Bring him to me before
break of day." Cayn bowed and took his leave, and Ned turned to Tomard. "The Wind Witch sails on


the evening tide. Have you chosen the escort?"
"Ten men, with Porther in command."
"Twenty, and you will command," Ned said. Porther was a brave man, but headstrong. He wanted
someone more solid and sensible to keep watch over his daughters.
"As you wish, m'lord," Tom said. "Can't say I'll be sad to see the back of this place. I miss the wife."
"You will pass near Dragonstone when you turn north. I need you to deliver a letter for me."
Tom looked apprehensive. "To Dragonstone, m'lord?" The island fortress of House Targaryen had a
sinister repute.
"Tell Captain Qos to hoist my banner as soon as he comes in sight of the island. They may be wary of
unexpected visitors. If he is reluctant, offer him whatever it takes. I will give you a letter to place into the
hand of Lord Stannis Baratheon. No one else. Not his steward, nor the captain of his guard, nor his lady
wife, but only Lord Stannis himself."
"As you command, m1ord."
When Tomard had left him, Lord Eddard Stark sat staring at the flame of the candle that burned beside
him on the table. For a moment his grief overwhelmed him. He wanted nothing so much as to seek out
the godswood, to kneel before the heart tree and pray for the life of Robert Baratheon, who had been
more than a brother to him. Men would whisper afterward that Eddard Stark had betrayed his king's
friendship and disinherited his sons; he could only hope that the gods would know better, and that Robert
would learn the truth of it in the land beyond the grave.
Ned took out the king's last letter. A roll of crisp white parchment sealed with golden wax, a few short
words and a smear of blood. How small the difference between victory and defeat, between life and
death.
He drew out a fresh sheet of paper and dipped his quill in the inkpot. To His Grace, Stannis of the
House Baratheon, he wrote. By the time you receive this letter, your brother Robert, our King these past
fifteen years, will be dead. He was savaged by a boar whilst hunting in the kingswood . . .
The letters seemed to writhe and twist on the paper as his hand trailed to a stop. Lord Tywin and Ser
Jaime were not men to suffer disgrace meekly; they would fight rather than flee. No doubt Lord Stannis
was wary, after the murder of Jon Arryn, but it was imperative that he sail for King's Landing at once
with all his power, before the Lannisters could march.
Ned chose each word with care. When he was done, he signed the letter Eddard Stark, Lord of
Winterfell, Hand of the King, and Protector of the Realm, blotted the paper, folded it twice, and melted
the sealing wax over the candle flame.
His regency would be a short one, he reflected as the wax softened. The new king would choose his
own Hand. Ned would be free to go home. The thought of Winterfell brought a wan smile to his face. He
wanted to hear Bran's laughter once more, to go hawking with Robb, to watch Rickon at play. He


wanted to drift off to a dreamless sleep in his own bed with his arms wrapped tight around his lady,
Catelyn.
Cayn returned as he was pressing the direwolf seal down into the soft white wax. Desmond was with
him, and between them Littlefinger. Ned thanked his guards and sent them away.
Lord Petyr was clad in a blue velvet tunic with puffed sleeves, his silvery cape patterned with
mockingbirds. "I suppose congratulations are in order," he said as he seated himself.
Ned scowled. "The king lies wounded and near to death."
"I know," Littlefinger said. "I also know that Robert has named you Protector of the Realm."
Ned's eyes flicked to the king's letter on the table beside him, its seal unbroken. "And how is it you
know that, my lord?"
"Varys hinted as much," Littlefinger said, "and you have just confirmed it."
Ned's mouth twisted in anger. "Damn Varys and his little birds. Catelyn spoke truly, the man has some
black art. I do not trust him."
"Excellent. You're learning." Littlefinger leaned forward. "Yet I'll wager you did not drag me here in the
black of night to discuss the eunuch."
"No," Ned admitted. "I know the secret Jon Arryn was murdered to protect. Robert will leave no
trueborn son behind him. Joffrey and Tommen are Jaime Lannister's bastards, born of his incestuous
union with the queen."
Littlefinger lifted an eyebrow. "Shocking," he said in a tone that suggested he was not shocked at all.
"The girl as well? No doubt. So when the king dies . . ."
"The throne by rights passes to Lord Stannis, the elder of Robert's two brothers."
Lord Petyr stroked his pointed beard as he considered the matter. "So it would seem. Unless . . ."
"Unless, my lord? There is no seeming to this. Stannis is the heir. Nothing can change that."
" Stannis cannot take the throne without your help. If you're wise, you'll make certain Joffrey succeeds."
Ned gave him a stony stare. "Have you no shred of honor?"
"Oh, a shred, surely," Littlefinger replied negligently. "Hear me out. Stannis is no friend of yours, nor of
mine. Even his brothers can scarcely stomach him. The man is iron, hard and unyielding. He'll give us a
new Hand and a new council, for a certainty. No doubt he'll thank you for handing him the crown, but he
won't love you for it. And his ascent will mean war. Stannis cannot rest easy on the throne until Cersei
and her bastards are dead. Do you think Lord Tywin will sit idly while his daughter's head is measured
for a spike? Casterly Rock will rise, and not alone. Robert found it in him to pardon men who served
King Aerys, so long as they did him fealty. Stannis is less forgiving. He will not have forgotten the siege of
Storm's End, and the Lords Tyrell and Redwyne dare not. Every man who fought beneath the dragon


banner or rose with Balon Greyjoy will have good cause to fear. Seat Stannis on the Iron Throne and I
promise you, the realm will bleed.
"Now look at the other side of the coin. Joffrey is but twelve, and Robert gave you the regency, my lord.
You are the Hand of the King and Protector of the Realm. The power is yours, Lord Stark. All you need
do is reach out and take it. Make your peace with the Lannisters. Release the Imp. Wed Joffrey to your
Sansa. Wed your younger girl to
Prince Tommen, and your heir to Myrcella. It will be four years before Joffrey comes of age. By then he
will look to you as a second father, and if not, well . . . four years is a good long while, my lord. Long
enough to dispose of Lord Stannis. Then, should Joffrey prove troublesome, we can reveal his little
secret and put Lord Renly on the throne."
"We?" Ned repeated.
Littlefinger gave a shrug. "You'll need someone to share your burdens. I assure you, my price would be
modest."
"Your price." Ned's voice was ice. "Lord Baelish, what you suggest is treason."
"Only if we lose."
"You forget," Ned told him. "You forget Jon Arryn. You forget Jory Cassel. And you forget this." He
drew the dagger and laid it on the table between them; a length of dragonbone and Valyrian steel, as
sharp as the difference between right and wrong, between true and false, between life and death. "They
sent a man to cut my son's throat, Lord Baelish."
Littlefinger sighed. "I fear I did forget, my lord. Pray forgive me. For a moment I did not remember that I
was talking to a Stark." His mouth quirked. "So it will be Stannis, and war?"
"It is not a choice. Stannis is the heir."
"Far be it from me to dispute the Lord Protector. What would you have of me, then? Not my wisdom,
for a certainty."
"I shall do my best to forget your . . . wisdom," Ned said with distaste. "I called you here to ask for the
help you promised Catelyn. This is a perilous hour for all of us. Robert has named me Protector, true
enough, but in the eyes of the world, Joffrey is still his son and heir. The queen has a dozen knights and a
hundred men-at-arms who will do whatever she commands . . . enough to overwhelm what remains of
my own household guard. And for all I know, her brother Jaime may be riding for King's Landing even
as we speak, with a Lannister host at his back."
"And you without an army." Littlefinger toyed with the dagger on the table, turning it slowly with a finger.
"There is small love lost between Lord Renly and the Lannisters. Bronze Yohn Royce, Ser Balon Swann,
Ser Loras, Lady Tanda, the Redwyne twins . . . each of them has a retinue of knights and sworn swords
here at court."
"Renly has thirty men in his personal guard, the rest even fewer. It is not enough, even if I could be
certain that all of them will choose to give me their allegiance. I must have the gold cloaks. The City


Watch is
two thousand strong, sworn to defend the castle, the city, and the king's peace."
"Ah, but when the queen proclaims one king and the Hand another, whose peace do they protect?"
Lord Petyr flicked at the dagger with his finger, setting it spinning in place. Round and round it went,
wobbling as it turned. When at last it slowed to a stop, the blade pointed at Littlefinger. "Why, there's
your answer," he said, smiling. "They follow the man who pays them." He leaned back and looked Ned
full in the face, his grey-green eyes bright with mockery. "You wear your honor like a suit of armor,
Stark. You think it keeps you safe, but all it does is weigh you down and make it hard for you to move.
Look at you now. You know why you summoned me here. You know what you want to ask me to do.
You know it has to be done . . . but it's not honorable, so the words stick in your throat."
Ned's neck was rigid with tension. For a moment he was so angry that he did not trust himself to speak.
Littlefinger laughed. "I ought to make you say it, but that would be cruel . . . so have no fear, my good
lord. For the sake of the love I bear for Catelyn, I will go to Janos Slynt this very hour and make certain
that the City Watch is yours. Six thousand gold pieces should do it. A third for the Commander, a third
for the officers, a third for the men. We might be able to buy them for half that much, but I prefer not to
take chances." Smiling, he plucked up the dagger and offered it to Ned, hilt first.
JON
Jon was breaking his fast on applecakes and blood sausage when Samwell Tarly plopped himself down
on the bench. "I've been summoned to the sept," Sam said in an excited whisper. "They're passing me out
of training. I'm to be made a brother with the rest of you. Can you believe it?"
"No, truly?"
"Truly. I'm to assist Maester Aemon with the library and the birds. He needs someone who can read and
write letters."
"You'll do well at that," Jon said, smiling.
Sam glanced about anxiously. "Is it time to go? I shouldn't be late, they might change their minds." He
was fairly bouncing as they crossed the weed-strewn courtyard. The day was warm and sunny. Rivulets
of water trickled down the sides of the Wall, so the ice seemed to sparkle and shine.
Inside the sept, the great crystal caught the morning light as it streamed through the south-facing window
and spread it in a rainbow on the altar. Pyp's mouth dropped open when he caught sight of Sam, and
Toad poked Grenn in the ribs, but no one dared say a word. Septon Celladar was swinging a censer,
filling the air with fragrant incense that reminded Jon of Lady Stark's little sept in Winterfell. For once the
septon seemed sober.
The high officers arrived in a body; Maester Aemon leaning on


Clydas, Ser Alliser cold-eyed and grim, Lord Commander Mormont resplendent in a black wool
doublet with silvered bearclaw fastenings. Behind them came the senior members of the three orders:
red-faced Bowen Marsh the Lord Steward, First Builder Othell Yarwyck, and Ser Jaremy Rykker, who
commanded the rangers in the absence of Benjen Stark.
Mormont stood before the altar, the rainbow shining on his broad bald head. "You came to us outlaws,"
he began, "poachers, rapers, debtors, killers, and thieves. You came to us children. You came to us
alone, in chains, with neither friends nor honor. You came to us rich, and you came to us poor. Some of
you bear the names of proud houses. Others have only bastards' names, or no names at all. It makes no
matter. All that is past now. On the Wall, we are all one house.
"At evenfall, as the sun sets and we face the gathering night, you shall take your vows. From that
moment, you will be a Sworn Brother of the Night's Watch. Your crimes will be washed away, your
debts forgiven. So too you must wash away your former loyalties, put aside your grudges, forget old
wrongs and old loves alike. Here you begin anew.
"A man of the Night's Watch lives his life for the realm. Not for a king, nor a lord, nor the honor of this
house or that house, neither for gold nor glory nor a woman's love, but for the realm, and all the people in
it. A man of the Night's Watch takes no wife and fathers no sons. Our wife is duty. Our mistress is honor.
And you are the only sons we shall ever know.
"You have learned the words of the vow. Think carefully before you say them, for once you have taken
the black, there is no turning back. The penalty for desertion is death." The Old Bear paused for a
moment before he said, "Are there any among you who wish to leave our company? If so, go now, and
no one shall think the less of you."
No one moved.
"Well and good," said Mormont. "You may take your vows here at evenfall, before Septon Celladar and
the first of your order. Do any of you keep to the old gods?"
Jon stood. "I do, my lord."
"I expect you will want to say your words before a heart tree, as your uncle did," Mormont said.
"Yes, my lord," Jon said. The gods of the sept had nothing to do with him; the blood of the First Men
flowed in the veins of the Starks.
He heard Grenn whispering behind him. "There's no godswood here. Is there? I never saw a
godswood."
"You wouldn't see a herd of aurochs until they trampled you into the snow," Pyp whispered back.
"I would so," Grenn insisted. "I'd see them a long way off."
Mormont himself confirmed Grenn's doubts. "Castle Black has no need of a godswood. Beyond the
Wall the haunted forest stands as it stood in the Dawn Age, long before the Andals brought the Seven
across the narrow sea. You will find a grove of weirwoods half a league from this spot, and mayhap your


gods as well."
"My lord." The voice made Jon glance back in surprise. Samwell Tarly was on his feet. The fat boy
wiped his sweaty palms against his tunic. "Might I . . . might I go as well? To say my words at this heart
tree?"
"Does House Tarly keep the old gods too?" Mormont asked.
"No, my lord," Sam replied in a thin, nervous voice. The high officers frightened him, Jon knew, the Old
Bear most of all. "I was named in the light of the Seven at the sept on Horn Hill, as my father was, and his
father, and all the Tarlys for a thousand years."
"Why would you forsake the gods of your father and your House?" wondered Ser Jaremy Rykker.
"The Night's Watch is my House now," Sam said. "The Seven have never answered my prayers.
Perhaps the old gods will."
"As you wish, boy," Mormont said. Sam took his seat again, as did Jon. "We have placed each of you in
an order, as befits our need and your own strengths and skills." Bowen Marsh stepped forward and
handed him a paper. The Lord Commander unrolled it and began to read. "Haider, to the builders," he
began. Haider gave a stiff nod of approval. "Grenn, to the rangers. Albett, to the builders. Pypar, to the
rangers." Pyp looked over at Jon and wiggled his ears. "Samwell, to the stewards." Sam sagged with
relief, mopping at his brow with,a scrap of silk. "Matthar, to the rangers. Dareon, to the stewards.
Todder, to the rangers. Jon, to the stewards."
The stewards? For a moment Jon could not believe what he had heard. Mormont must have read it
wrong. He started to rise, to open his mouth, to tell them there had been a mistake . . . and then he saw
Ser Alliser studying him, eyes shiny as two flakes of obsidian, and he knew.
The Old Bear rolled up the paper. "Your firsts will instruct you in your duties. May all the gods preserve
you, brothers." The Lord Commander favored them with a half bow, and took his leave. Ser Alliser went
with him, a thin smile on his face. Jon had never seen the masterat-arms took quite so happy.
"Rangers with me," Ser Jaremy Rykker called when they were gone.
Pyp was staring at Jon as he got slowly to his feet. His ears were red. Grenn, grinning broadly, did not
seem to realize that anything was amiss. Matt and Toad fell in beside them, and they followed Ser Jaremy
from the sept.
"Builders," announced lantern-jawed Othell Yarwyck. Haider and Albett trailed out after him.
Jon looked around him in sick disbelief. Maester Aemon's blind eyes were raised toward the light he
could not see. The septon was arranging crystals on the altar. Only Sam and Darcon remained on the
benches; a fat boy, a singer . . . and him.
Lord Steward Bowen Marsh rubbed his plump hands together. "Samwell, you will assist Maester
Aemon in the rookery and library. Chett is going to the kennels, to help with the hounds. You shall have
his cell, so as to be close to the maester night and day. I trust you will take good care of him. He is very
old and very precious to us.


"Dareon, I am told that you sang at many a high lord's table and shared their meat and mead. We are
sending you to Eastwatch. It may be your palate will be some help to Cotter Pyke when merchant galleys
come trading. We are paying too dear for salt beef and pickled fish, and the quality of the olive oil we're
getting has been frightful, Present yourself to Borcas when you arrive, he will keep you busy between
ships."
Marsh turned his smile on Jon. "Lord Commander Mormont has requested you for his personal steward,
Jon. You'll sleep in a cell beneath his chambers, in the Lord Commander's tower."
"And what will my duties be?" Jon asked sharply. "Will I serve the Lord Commander's meals, help him
fasten his clothes, fetch hot water for his bath?"
."Certainly." Marsh frowned at Jon's tone. "And you will run his messages, keep a fire burning in his
chambers, change his sheets and blankets daily, and do all else that the Lord Commander might require
of YOU."
"Do you take me for a servant?"
"No," Maester Aemon said, from the back of the sept. Clydas helped him stand. "We took you for a
man of Night's Watch . . . but perhaps we were wrong in that."
It was all Jon could do to stop himself from walking out. Was he supposed to churn butter and sew
doublets like a girl for the rest of his days? "May I go?" he asked stiffly.
"As you wish," Bowen Marsh responded.
Dareon and Sam left with him. They descended to the yard in silence. Outside, Jon looked up at the
Wall shining in the sun, the
melting ice creeping down its side in a hundred thin fingers. Jon's rage was such that he would have
smashed it all in an instant, and the world be damned.
"Jon," Samwell Tarly said excitedly. "Wait. Don't you see what they're doing?"
Jon turned on him in a fury. "I see Ser Alliser's bloody hand, that's all I see. He wanted to shame me,
and he has."
Dareon gave him a look. "The stewards are fine for the likes of you and me, Sam, but not for Lord
Snow."
"I'm a better swordsman and a better rider than any of you," Jon blazed back. "It's notfair!"
"Fair?" Dareon sneered. "The girl was waiting for me, naked as the day she was born. She pulled me
through the window, and you talk to me of fair?" He walked off.
"There is no shame in being a steward," Sam said.
"Do you think I want to spend the rest of my life washing an old man's smallclothes?"


"The old man is Lord Commander of the Night's Watch," Sam reminded him. "You'll be with him day
and night. Yes, you'll pour his wine and see that his bed linen is fresh, but you'll also take his letters,
attend him at meetings, squire for him in battle. You'll be as close to him as his shadow. You'll know
everything, be a part of everything . . . and the Lord Steward said Mormont asked for you himself!
"When I was little, my father used to insist that I attend him in the audience chamber whenever he held
court. When he rode to Highgarden to bend his knee to Lord Tyrell, he made me come. Later, though,
he started to take Dickon and leave me at home, and he no longer cared whether I sat through his
audiences, so long as Dickon was there. He wanted his heir at his side, don't you see? To watch and
listen and learn from all he did. I'll wager that's why Lord Mormont requested you, Jon. What else could
it be? He wants to groom you for command!"
Jon was taken aback. It was true, Lord Eddard had often made Robb part of his councils back at
Winterfell. Could Sam be right? Even a bastard could rise high in the Night's Watch, they said. "I never
asked for this," he said stubbornly.
"None of us are here for asking," Sam reminded him.
And suddenly Jon Snow was ashamed.
Craven or not, Samwell Tarly had found the courage to accept his fate like a man. On the Wall, a man
gets only what he earns, Benjen Stark had said the last night Jon had seen him alive. You're no ranger,
Jon, only a green boy with the smell of summer still on you. He'd heard it
said that bastards grow up faster than other children; on the Wall, you grew up or you died.
Jon let out a deep sigh. "You have the right of it. I was acting the boy.,,
"Then you'll stay and say your words with me?"
"The old gods will be expecting us." He made himself smile.
They set out late that afternoon. The Wall had no gates as such, neither here at Castle Black nor
anywhere along its three hundred miles. They led their horses down a narrow tunnel cut through the ice,
cold dark walls pressing in around them as the passage twisted and turned. Three times their way was
blocked by iron bars, and they had to stop while Bowen Marsh drew out his keys and unlocked the
massive chains that secured them. Jon could sense the vast weight pressing down on him as he waited
behind the Lord Steward. The air was colder than a tomb, and more still. He felt a strange relief when
they reemerged into the afternoon light on the north side of the Wall.
Sam blinked at the sudden glare and looked around apprehensively. "The wildlings . . . they wouldn't . . .
they'd never dare come this close to the Wall. Would they?"
"They never have." Jon climbed into his saddle. When Bowen Marsh and their ranger escort had
mounted, Jon put two fingers in his mouth and whistled. Ghost came loping out of the tunnel.
The Lord Steward's garron whickered and backed away from the direwolf. "Do you mean to take that
beast?"


"Yes, my lord," Jon said. Ghost's head lifted. He seemed to taste the air. In the blink of an eye he was
off, racing across the broad, weedchoked field to vanish in the trees.
Once they had entered the forest, they were in a different world. Jon had often hunted with his father and
Jory and his brother Robb. He knew the wolfswood around Winterfell as well as any man. The haunted
forest was much the same, and yet the feel of it was very different.
Perhaps it was all in the knowing. They had ridden past the end of the world; somehow that changed
everything. Every shadow seemed darker, every sound more ominous. The trees pressed close and shut
out the light of the setting sun. A thin crust of snow cracked beneath the hooves of their horses, with a
sound like breaking bones. When the wind set the leaves to rustling, it was like a chilly finger tracing a
path up Jon's spine. The Wall was at their backs, and only the gods knew what lay ahead.
The sun was sinking below the trees when they reached their destination, a small clearing in the deep of
the wood where nine weirwoods
grew in a rough circle. Jon drew in a breath, and be saw Sam Tarly staring. Even in the wolfswood, you
never found more than two or three of the white trees growing together; a grove of nine was unheard of.
The forest floor was carpeted with fallen leaves, bloodred on top, black rot beneath. The wide smooth
trunks were bone pale, and nine faces stared inward. The dried sap that crusted in the eyes was red and
hard as ruby. Bowen Marsh commanded them to leave their horses outside the circle. "This is a sacred
place, we will not defile it."
When they entered the grove, Samwell Tarly turned slowly looking at each face in turn. No two were
quite alike. "They're watching us," he whispered. "The old gods."
"Yes." Jon knelt, and Sam knelt beside him.
They said the words together, as the last light faded in the west and grey day became black night.
"Hear my words, and bear witness to my vow," they recited, their voices filling the twilit grove. "Night
gathers, and now my watch begins. It shall not end until my death. I shall take no wife, hold no lands,
father no children. I shall wear no crowns and win no glory. I shall live and die at my post. f am the
sword in the darkness. I am the watcher on the walls. I am the fire that burns against the cold, the light
that brings the dawn, the horn that wakes the sleepers, the shield that guards the realms of men. I pledge
my life and honor to the Night's Watch, for this night and all the nights to come."
The woods fell silent. "You knelt as boys," Bowen Marsh intoned solemnly. "Rise now as men of the
Night's Watch."
Jon held out a hand to pull Sam back to his feet. The rangers gathered round to offer smiles and
congratulations, all but the gnarled old forester Dywen. "Best we be starting back, m'lord," he said to
Bowen Marsh. "Dark's falling, and there's something in the smell o' the night that I mislike."
And suddenly Ghost was back, stalking softly between two weirwoods. White fur and red eyes, Jon
realized, disquieted. Like the trees . . .
The wolf had something in his jaws. Something black. "What's he got there?" asked Bowen Marsh,


frowning.
"To me, Ghost." Jon knelt. "Bring it here."
The direwolf trotted to him. Jon heard Samwell Tarly's sharp intake of breath.
"Gods be good," Dywen muttered. "That's a hand."
EDDARD
The grey light of dawn was streaming through his window when the thunder of hoofbeats awoke Eddard
Stark from his brief, exhausted sleep. He lifted his head from the table to look down into the yard.
Below, men in mail and leather and crimson cloaks were making the morning ring to the sound of swords,
and riding down mock warriors stuffed with straw. Ned watched Sandor Clegane gallop across the
hard-packed ground to drive an iron-tipped lance through a dummy's head. Canvas ripped and straw
exploded as Lannister guardsmen joked and cursed.
Is this brave show for my benefit? he wondered. If so, Cersei was a greater fool than he'd imagined.
Damn her, he thought, why is the woman not fled? I have given her chance after chance . . .
The morning was overcast and grim. Ned broke his fast with his daughters and Septa Mordane. Sansa,
still disconsolate, stared sullenly at her food and refused to eat, but Arya wolfed down everything that
was set in front of her. "Syrio says we have time for one last lesson before we take ship this evening," she
said. "Can 1, Father? All my things are packed."
"A short lesson, and make certain you leave yourself time to bathe and change. I want you ready to
leave by midday, is that understood?"
"By midday," Arya said.
Sansa looked up from her food. "If she can have a dancing lesson, why won't you let me say farewell to
Prince Joffrey?"
"I would gladly go with her, Lord Eddard," Septa Mordane offered. "There would be no question of her
missing the ship."
"It would not be wise for you to go to Joffrey right now, Sansa. I'm sorry."
Sansa's eyes filled with tears. "But why?"
"Sansa, your lord father knows best," Septa Mordane said. "You are not to question his decisions."
"It's notfair!" Sansa pushed back from her table, knocked over her chair, and ran weeping from the
solar.
Septa Mordane rose, but Ned gestured her back to her seat. "Let her go, Septa. I will try to make her
understand when we are all safely back in Winterfell." The septa bowed her head and sat down to finish


her breakfast.
It was an hour later when Grand Maester Pycelle came to Eddard Stark in his solar. His shoulders
slumped, as if the weight of the great maester's chain around his neck had become too great to bear. "My
lord," he said, "King Robert is gone. The gods give him rest."
"No," Ned answered. "He hated rest. The gods give him love and laughter, and the joy of righteous
battle." It was strange how empty he felt. He had been expecting the visit, and yet with those words,
something died within him. He would have given all his titles for the freedom to weep . . . but he was
Robert's Hand, and the hour he dreaded had come. "Be so good as to summon the members of the
council here to my solar," he told Pycelle. The Tower of the Hand was as secure as he and Tomard
could make it; he could not say the same for the council chambers.
"My lord?" Pycelle blinked. "Surely the affairs of the kingdom will keep till the morrow, when our grief is
not so fresh."
Ned was quiet but firm. "I fear we must convene at once."
Pycelle bowed. "As the Hand commands." He called his servants and sent them running, then gratefully
accepted Ned's offer of a chair and a cup of sweet beer.
Ser Barristan Selmy was the first to answer the summons, immaculate in white cloak and enameled
scales. "My lords," he said, "my place is beside the young king now. Pray give me leave to attend him."
"Your place is here, Ser Barristan," Ned told him.
Littlefinger came next, still garbed in the blue velvets and silver mockingbird cape he had worn the night
previous, his boots dusty from riding. "My lords," he said, smiling at nothing in particular before he
turned to Ned. "That little task you set me is accomplished, Lord Eddard."
Varys entered in a wash of lavender, pink from his bath, his plump face scrubbed and freshly powdered,
his soft slippers all but soundless. "The little birds sing a grievous song today," he said as he seated
himself. "The realm weeps. Shall we begin?"
"When Lord Renly arrives," Ned said.
Varys gave him a sorrowful look. "I fear Lord Renly has left the city."
"Left the city?" Ned had counted on Renly's support.
"He took his leave through a postern gate an hour before dawn, accompanied by Ser Loras Tyrell and
some fifty retainers," Varys told them. "When last seen, they were galloping south in some haste, no
doubt bound for Storm's End or Highgarden."
So much for Renly and his hundred swords. Ned did not like the smell of that, but there was nothing to
be done for it. He drew out Robert's last letter. "The king called me to his side last night and commanded
me to record his final words. Lord Renly and Grand Maester Pycelle stood witness as Robert sealed the
letter, to be opened by the council after his death. Ser Barristan, if you would be so kind?"


The Lord Commander of the Kingsguard examined the paper. "King Robert's seal, and unbroken." He
opened the letter and read. "Lord Eddard Stark is herein named Protector of the Realm, to rule as regent
until the heir comes of age."
And as it happens, he is of age, Ned reflected, but he did not give voice to the thought. He trusted
neither Pycelle nor Varys, and Ser Barristan was honor-bound to protect and defend the boy he thought
his new king. The old knight would not abandon Joffrey easily. The need for deceit was a bitter taste in
his mouth, but Ned knew he must tread softly here, must keep his counsel and play the game until he was
firmly established as regent. There would be time enough to deal with the succession when Arya and
Sansa were safely back in Winterfell, and Lord Stannis had returned to King's Landing with all his
power.
"I would ask this council to confirm me as Lord Protector, as Robert wished," Ned said, watching their
faces, wondering what thoughts hid behind Pycelle's half-closed eyes, Littlefinger's lazy half-smile, and
the nervous flutter of Varys's fingers.
The door opened. Fat Tom stepped into the solar. "Pardon, my lords, the king's steward insists . . ."
The royal steward entered and bowed. "Esteemed lords, the king
demands the immediate presence of his small council in the throne room."
Ned had expected Cersei to strike quickly; the summons came as no surprise. "The king is dead," he
said, "but we shall go with you nonetheless. Tom, assemble an escort, if you would."
Littlefinger gave Ned his arm to help him down the steps. Varys, Pycelle, and Ser Barristan followed
close behind. A double column of men-at-arms in chainmail and steel helms was waiting outside the
tower, eight strong. Grey cloaks snapped in the wind as the guardsmen marched them across the yard.
There was no Lannister crimson to be seen, but Ned was reassured by the number of gold cloaks visible
on the ramparts and at the gates.
Janos Slynt met them at the door to the throne room, armored in ornate black-and-gold plate, with a
high-crested helm under one arm. The Commander bowed stiffly. His men pushed open the great oaken
doors, twenty feet tall and banded with bronze.
The royal steward led them in. "All hail His Grace, Joffrey of the Houses Baratheon and Lannister, the
First of his Name, King of the Andals and the Rhoynar and the First Men, Lord of the Seven Kingdoms
and Protector of the Realm," he sang out.
It was a long walk to the far end of the hall, where Joffrey waited atop the Iron Throne. Supported by
Littlefinger, Ned Stark slowly limped and hopped toward the boy who called himself king. The others
followed. The first time he had come this way, he had been on horseback, sword in hand, and the
Targaryen dragons had watched from the walls as he forced Jaime Lannister down from the throne. He
wondered if Joffrey would step down quite so easily.
Five knights of the Kingsguard-all but Ser Jaime and Ser Barristan-were arrayed in a crescent around
the base of the throne. They were in full armor, enameled steel from helm to heel, long pale cloaks over
their shoulders, shining white shields strapped to their left arms. Cersei Lannister and her two younger


children stood behind Ser Boros and Ser Meryn. The queen wore a gown of sea-green silk, trimmed
with Myrish lace as pale as foam. On her finger was a golden ring with an emerald the size of a pigeon's
egg, on her head a matching tiara.
Above them, Prince Joffrey sat amidst the barbs and spikes in a cloth-of-gold doublet and a red satin
cape. Sandor Clegane was stationed at the foot of the throne's steep narrow stair. He wore mail and
soot-grey plate and his snarling dog's-head helm.
Behind the throne, twenty Lannister guardsmen waited with longswords hanging from their belts.
Crimson cloaks draped their shoulders and steel lions crested their helms. But Littlefinger had kept his
promise; all along the walls, in front of Robert's tapestries with their scenes of hunt and battle, the
gold-cloaked ranks of the City Watch stood stiffly to attention, each man's hand clasped around the haft
of an eight-foot-long spear tipped in black iron. They outnumbered the Lannisters five to one.
Ned's leg was a blaze of pain by the time he stopped. He kept a hand on Littlefinger's shoulder to help
support his weight.
Joffrey stood. His red satin cape was patterned in gold thread; fifty roaring lions to one side, fifty
prancing stags to the other. "I command the council to make all the necessary arrangements for my
coronation," the boy proclaimed. "I wish to be crowned within the fortnight. Today I shall accept oaths of
fealty from my loyal councillors."
Ned produced Robert's letter. "Lord Varys, be so kind as to show this to my lady of Lannister."
The eunuch carried the letter to Cersei. The queen glanced at the words. "Protector of the Realm," she
read. "Is this meant to be your shield, my lord? A piece of paper?" She ripped the letter in half, ripped
the halves in quarters, and let the pieces flutter to the floor.
"Those were the king's words," Ser Barristan said, shocked.
"We have a new king now," Cersei Lannister replied. "Lord Eddard, when last we spoke, you gave me
some counsel. Allow me to return the courtesy. Bend the knee, my lord. Bend the knee and swear fealty
to my son, and we shall allow you to step down as Hand and live out your days in the grey waste you call
home."
"Would that I could," Ned said grimly. If she was so determined to force the issue here and now, she left
him no choice. "Your son has no claim to the throne he sits. Lord Stannis is Robert's true heir."
"Liar!" Joffrey screamed, his face reddening.
"Mother, what does he mean?" Princess Myrcella asked the queen plaintively. "Isn't Joff the king now?"
"You condemn yourself with your own mouth, Lord Stark," said Cersei Lannister. "Ser Barristan, seize
this traitor."
The Lord Commander of the Kingsguard hesitated. In the blink of an eye he was surrounded by Stark
guardsmen, bare steel in their mailed fists.


"And now the treason moves from words to deeds," Cersei said. "Do you think Ser Barristan stands
alone, my lord?" With an ominous rasp of metal on metal, the Hound drew his longsword. The knights of
the Kingsguard and twenty Lannister guardsmen in crimson cloaks moved to support him.
"Kill him!" the boy king screamed down from the Iron Throne. "Kill all of them, I command it!"
"You leave me no choice," Ned told Cersei Lannister. He called out to Janos Slynt. "Commander, take
the queen and her children into custody. Do them no harm, but escort them back to the royal apartments
and keep them there, under guard."
"Men of the Watch!" Janos Slynt shouted, donning his helm. A hundred gold cloaks leveled their spears
and closed.
"I want no bloodshed," Ned told the queen. "Tell your men to lay down their swords, and no one need-"
With a single sharp thrust, the nearest gold cloak drove his spear into Tomard's back. Fat Tom's blade
dropped from nerveless fingers as the wet red point burst out through his ribs, piercing leather and mail.
He was dead before his sword hit the floor.
Ned's shout came far too late. Janos Slynt himself slashed open Varly's throat. Cayn whirled, steel
flashing, drove back the nearest spearman with a flurry of blows; for an instant it looked as though he
might cut his way free. Then the Hound was on him. Sandor Clegane's first cut took off Cayn's sword
hand at the wrist; his second drove him to his knees and opened him from shoulder to breastbone.
As his men died around him, Littlefinger slid Ned's dagger from its sheath and shoved it up under his
chin. His smile was apologetic. "I did warn you not to trust me, you know."
ARYA
"High," Syrio Forel called out, slashing at her head. The stick swords clacked as Arya parried.
"Left," he shouted, and his blade came whistling. Hers darted to meet it. The clack made him click his
teeth together.
"Right," he said, and "Low," and "Left," and "Left" again, faster and faster, moving forward. Arya
retreated before him, checking each blow.
"Lunge," he warned, and when he thrust she sidestepped, swept his blade away, and slashed at his
shoulder. She almost touched him, almost, so close it made her grin. A strand of hair dangled in her eyes,
limp with sweat. She pushed it away with the back of her hand.
"Left," Syrio sang out. "Low." His sword was a blur, and the Small Hall echoed to the clack clack clack.
"Left. Left. High. Left. Right. Left. Low. Left!"
The wooden blade caught her high in the breast, a sudden stinging blow that hurt all the more because it
came from the wrong side. "Owl " she cried out. She would have a fresh bruise there by the time she
went to sleep, somewhere out at sea. A bruise is a lesson, she told herself, and each lesson makes us


better.
Syrio stepped back. "You are dead now."
Arya made a face. "You cheated," she said hotly. "You said left and you went right."
"Just so. And now you are a dead girl."
"But you lied!"
"My words lied. My eyes and my arm shouted out the truth, but you were not seeing."
"I was so," Arya said. "I watched you every second!"
"Watching is not seeing, dead girl. The water dancer sees. Come, put down the sword, it is time for
listening now."
She followed him over to the wall, where he settled onto a bench. "Syrio Forel was first sword to the
Sealord of Braavos, and are you knowing how that came to pass?"
"You were the finest swordsman in the city."
"Just so, but why? Other men were stronger, faster, younger, why was Syrio Forel the best? I will tell
you now." He touched the tip of his little finger lightly to his eyelid. "The seeing, the true seeing, that is the
heart of it.
"Hear me. The ships of Braavos sail as far as the winds blow, to lands strange and wonderful, and when
they return their captains fetch queer animals to the Sealord's menagerie. Such animals as you have never
seen, striped horses, great spotted things with necks as long as stilts, hairy mouse-pigs as big as cows,
stinging manticores, tigers that carry their cubs in a pouch, terrible walking lizards with scythes for claws.
Syrio Forel has seen these things.
"On the day I am speaking of, the first sword was newly dead, and the Sealord sent for me. Many
bravos had come to him, and as many had been sent away, none could say why. When I came into his
presence, he was seated, and in his lap was a fat yellow cat. He told me that one of his captains had
brought the beast to him, from an island beyond the sunrise. 'Have you ever seen her likeT he asked of
me.
"And to him I said, 'Each night in the alleys of Braavos I see a thousand like him,' and the Sealord
laughed, and that day I was named the first sword."
Arya screwed up her face. "I don't understand."
Syrio clicked his teeth together. "The cat was an ordinary cat, no more. The others expected a fabulous
beast, so that is what they saw. How large it was, they said. It was no larger than any other cat, only fat
from indolence, for the Sealord fed it from his own table. What curious small ears, they said. Its ears had
been chewed away in kitten fights. And it was plainly a tomcat, yet the Sealord said 'her,' and that is what
the others saw. Are you hearing?"


Arya thought about it. "You saw what was there."
"Just so. Opening your eyes is all that is needing. The heart lies and the head plays tricks with us, but the
eyes see true. Look with your
eyes. Hear with your ears. Taste with your mouth. Smell with your nose. Feel with your skin. Then
comes the thinking, afterward, and in that way knowing the truth."
"Just so," said Arya, grinning.
Syrio Forel allowed himself a smile. "I am thinking that when we are reaching this Winterfell of yours, it
will be time to put this needle in your hand."
"Yes!" Arya said eagerly. "Wait till I show Jon-"
Behind her the great wooden doors of the Small Hall flew open with a resounding crash. Arya whirled.
A knight of the Kingsguard stood beneath the arch of the door with five Lannister guardsmen arrayed
behind him. He was in full armor, but his visor was up. Arya remembered his droopy eyes and
rustcolored whiskers from when he had come to Winterfell with the king: Ser Meryn Trant. The red
cloaks wore mail shirts over boiled leather and steel caps with lion crests. "Arya Stark," the knight said,
"come with us, child."
Arya chewed her lip uncertainly. "What do you want?"
"Your father wants to see you."
Arya took a step forward, but Syrio Forel held her by the arm. "And why is it that Lord Eddard is
sending Lannister men in the place of his own? I am wondering."
"Mind your place, dancing master," Ser Meryn said. "This is no concern of yours."
"My father wouldn't send you," Arya said. She snatched up her stick sword. The Lannisters laughed.
"Put down the stick, girl," Ser Meryn told her. "I am a Sworn Brother of the Kingsguard, the White
Swords."
"So was the Kingslayer when he killed the old king," Arya said. "I don't have to go with you if I don't
want."
Ser Meryn Trant ran out of patience. "Take her," he said to his men. He lowered the visor of his helm.
Three of them started forward, chainmail clinking softly with each step. Arya was suddenly afraid. Fear
cuts deeper than swords, she told herself, to slow the racing of her heart.
Syrio Forel stepped between them, tapping his wooden sword lightly against his boot. "You will be
stopping there. Are you men or dogs that you would threaten a child?"
"Out of the way, old man," one of the red cloaks said.


Syrio's stick came whistling up and rang against his helm. "I am Syrio Forel, and you will now be
speaking to me with more respect."
"Bald bastard." The man yanked free his longsword. The stick
moved again, blindingly fast. Arya heard a loud crack as the sword went clattering to the stone floor.
"My hand," the guardsman yelped, cradling his broken fingers.
"You are quick, for a dancing master," said Ser Meryn.
"You are slow, for a knight," Syrio replied.
"Kill the Braavosi and bring me the girl," the knight in the white armor commanded.
Four Lannister guardsmen unsheathed their swords. The fifth, with the broken fingers, spat and pulled
free a dagger with his left hand.
Syrio Forel clicked his teeth together, sliding into his water dancer's stance, presenting only his side to
the foe. "Arya child," he called out, never looking, never taking his eyes off the Lannisters, "we are done
with dancing for the day. Best you are going now. Run to your father."
Arya did not want to leave him, but he had taught her to do as he said. "Swift as a deer, " she
whispered.
"Just so," said Syrio Forel as the Lannisters closed.
Arya retreated, her own sword stick clutched tightly in her hand. Watching him now, she realized that
Syrio had only been toying with her when they dueled. The red cloaks came at him from three sides with
steel in their hands. They had chainmail over their chest and arms, and steel codpieces sewn into their
pants, but only leather on their legs. Their hands were bare, and the caps they wore had noseguards, but
no visor over the eyes.
Syrio did not wait for them to reach him, but spun to his left. Arya had never seen a man move as fast.
He checked one sword with his stick and whirled away from a second. Off balance, the second man
lurched into the first. Syrio put a boot to his back and the red cloaks went down together. The third
guard came leaping over them, slashing at the water dancer's head. Syrio ducked under his blade and
thrust upward. The guardsman fell screaming as blood welled from the wet red hole where his left eye
had been.
The fallen men were getting up. Syrio kicked one in the face and snatched the steel cap off the other's
head. The dagger man stabbed at him. Syrio caught the thrust in the helmet and shattered the man's
kneecap with his stick. The last red cloak shouted a curse and charged, hacking down with both hands
on his sword. Syrio rolled right, and the butcher's cut caught the helmetless man between neck and
shoulder as he struggled to his knees. The longsword crunched through mail and leather and flesh. The
man on his knees shrieked. Before his killer could wrench free his blade, Syrio jabbed him in the apple of
his throat. The guardsman gave a choked cry and staggered back, clutching at his neck, his face
blackening.


Five men were down, dead, or dying by the time Arya reached the back door that opened on the
kitchen. She heard Ser Meryn Trant curse. "Bloody oafs," he swore, drawing his longsword from its
scabbard.
Syrio Forel resumed his stance and clicked his teeth together. "Arya child," he called out, never looking
at her, "be gone now."
Look with your eyes, he had said. She saw: the knight in his pale armor head to foot, legs, throat, and
hands sheathed in metal, eyes hidden behind his high white helm, and in his hand cruel steel. Against that:
Syrio, in a leather vest, with a wooden sword in his hand. "Syrio, run," she screamed.
"The first sword of Braavos does not run," he sang as Ser Meryn slashed at him. Syrio danced away
from his cut, his stick a blur. In a heartbeat, he had bounced blows off the knight's temple, elbow, and
throat, the wood ringing against the metal of helm, gauntlet, and gorget. Arya stood frozen. Ser Meryn
advanced; Syrio backed away. He checked the next blow, spun away from the second, deflected the
third.
The fourth sliced his stick in two, splintering the wood and shearing through the lead core.
Sobbing, Arya spun and ran.
She plunged through the kitchens and buttery, blind with panic, weaving between cooks and potboys. A
baker's helper stepped in front of her, holding a wooden tray. Arya bowled her over, scattering fragrant
loaves of fresh-baked bread on the floor. She heard shouting behind her as she spun around a portly
butcher who stood gaping at her with a cleaver in his hands. His arms were red to the elbow.
All that Syrio Forel had taught her went racing through her head. Swift as a deer. Quiet as a shadow.
Fear cuts deeper than swords. Quick as a snake. Calm as still water. Fear cuts deeper than swords.
Strong as a bear. Fierce as a wolverine. Fear cuts deeper than swords. The man who fears losing has
already lost. Fear cuts deeper than swords. Fear cuts deeper than swords. Fear cuts deeper than
swords. The grip of her wooden sword was slick with sweat, and Arya was breathing hard when she
reached the turret stair. For an instant she froze. Up or down? Up would take her to the covered bridge
that spanned the small court to the Tower of the Hand, but that would be the way they'd expect her to
go, for certain. Never do what they expect, Syrio once said. Arya went down, around and around,
leaping over the narrow stone steps two and three at a time. She emerged in a cavernous vaulted cellar,
surrounded by casks of ale stacked twenty feet tall. The only light came through narrow slanting windows
high in the wall.
The cellar was a dead end. There was no way out but the way she
had come in. She dare not go back up those steps, but she couldn't stay here, either. She had to find her
father and tell him what had happened. Her father would protect her.
Arya thrust her wooden sword through her belt and began to climb, leaping from cask to cask until she
could reach the window. Grasping the stone with both hands, she pulled herself up. The wall was three
feet thick, the window a tunnel slanting up and out. Arya wriggled toward daylight. When her head
reached ground level, she peered across the bailey to the Tower of the Hand.


The stout wooden door hung splintered and broken, as if by axes. A dead man sprawled facedown on
the steps, his cloak tangled beneath him, the back of his mailed shirt soaked red. The corpse's cloak was
grey wool trimmed with white satin, she saw with sudden terror. She could not tell who he was.
"No, " she whispered. What was happening? Where was her father? Why had the red cloaks come for
her? She remembered what the man with the yellow beard had said, the day she had found the monsters.
If one Hand can die, why not a second? Arya felt tears in her eyes. She held her breath to listen. She
heard the sounds of fighting, shouts, screams, the clang of steel on steel, coming through the windows of
the Tower of the Hand.
She could not go back. Her father . . .
Arya closed her eyes. For a moment she was too frightened to move. They had killed Jory and Wyl and
Heward, and that guardsman on the step, whoever he had been. They could kill her father too, and her if
they caught her. "Fear cuts deeper than swords, " she said aloud, but it was no good pretending to be a
water dancer, Syrio had been a water dancer and the white knight had probably killed him, and anyhow
she was only a little girl with a wooden stick, alone and afraid.
She squirmed out into the yard, glancing around warily as she climbed to her feet. The castle seemed
deserted. The Red Keep was never deserted. All the people must be hiding inside, their doors barred.
Arya glanced up longingly at her bedchamber, then moved away from the Tower of the Hand, keeping
close to the wall as she slid from shadow to shadow. She pretended she was chasing cats . . . except she
was the cat now, and if they caught her, they would kill her.
Moving between buildings and over walls, keeping stone to her back wherever possible so no one could
surprise her, Arya reached the stables almost without incident. A dozen gold cloaks in mail and plate ran
past as she was edging across the inner bailey, but without knowing whose side they were on, she
hunched down low in the shadows and let them pass.
Hullen, who had been master of horse at Winterfell as long as Arya could remember, was slumped on
the ground by the stable door. He had been stabbed so many times it looked as if his tunic was patterned
with scarlet flowers. Arya was certain he was dead, but when she crept closer, his eyes opened. "Arya
Underfoot," he whispered. "You must . . . warn your . . . your lord father . . ." Frothy red spittle bubbled
from his mouth. The master of horse closed his eyes again and said no more.
Inside were more bodies; a groom she had played with, and three of her father's household guard. A
wagon, laden with crates and chests, stood abandoned near the door of the stable. The dead men must
have been loading it for the trip to the docks when they were attacked. Arya snuck closer. One of the
corpses was Desmond, who'd shown her his longsword and promised to protect her father. He lay on his
back, staring blindly at the ceiling as flies crawled across his eyes. Close to him was a dead man in the
red cloak and lion-crest helm of the Lannisters. Only one, though. Every northerner is worth ten of these
southron swords, Desmond had told her. "You liar!" she said, kicking his body in a sudden fury.
The animals were restless in their stalls, whickering and snorting at the scent of blood. Arya's only plan
was to saddle a horse and flee, away from the castle and the city. All she had to do was stay on the
kingsroad and it would take her back to Winterfell. She took a bridle and harness off the wall.
As she crossed in back of the wagon, a fallen chest caught her eye. It must have been knocked down in


the fight or dropped as it was being loaded. The wood had split, the lid opening to spill the chest's
contents across the ground. Arya recognized silks and satins and velvets she never wore. She might need
warm clothes on the kingsroad, though . . . and besides . . .
Arya knelt in the dirt among the scattered clothes. She found a heavy woolen cloak, a velvet skirt and a
silk tunic and some smallclothes, a dress her mother had embroidered for her, a silver baby bracelet she
might sell. Shoving the broken lid out of the way, she groped inside the chest for Needle. She had hidden
it way down at the bottom, under everything, but her stuff had all been jumbled around when the chest
was dropped. For a moment Arya was afraid someone had found the sword and stolen it. Then her
fingers felt the hardness of metal under a satin gown.
"There she is," a voice hissed close behind her.
Startled, Arya whirled. A stableboy stood behind her, a smirk on his face, his filthy white undertunic
peeking out from beneath a soiled
jerkin. His boots were covered with manure, and he had a pitchfork in one hand. "Who are you?" she
asked.
"She don't know me," he said, "but I knows her, oh, yes. The wolf girl."
"Help me saddle a horse," Arya pleaded, reaching back into the chest, groping for Needle. "My father's
the Hand of the King, he'll reward you."
"Father's dead," the boy said. He shuffled toward her. "It's the queen who'll be rewarding me. Come
here, girl."
"Stay away!" Her fingers closed around Needle's hilt.
"I says, come." He grabbed her arm, hard.
Everything Syrio Forel had ever taught her vanished in a heartbeat. In that instant of sudden terror, the
only lesson Arya could remember was the one Jon Snow had given her, the very first.
She stuck him with the pointy end, driving the blade upward with a wild, hysterical strength.
Needle went through his leather jerkin and the white flesh of his belly and came out between his shoulder
blades. The boy dropped the pitchfork and made a soft noise, something between a gasp and a sigh. His
hands closed around the blade. "Oh, gods," he moaned, as his undertunic began to redden. "Take it out."
When she took it out, he died.
The horses were screaming. Arya stood over the body, still and frightened in the face of death. Blood
had gushed from the boy's mouth as he collapsed, and more was seeping from the slit in his belly, pooling
beneath his body. His palms were cut where he'd grabbed at the blade. She backed away slowly,
Needle red in her hand. She had to get away, someplace far from here, someplace safe away from the
stableboy's accusing eyes.
She snatched up the bridle and harness again and ran to her mare, but as she lifted the saddle to the


horse's back, Arya realized with a sudden sick dread that the castle gates would be closed. Even the
postern doors would likely be guarded. Maybe the guards wouldn't recognize her. If they thought she
was a boy, perhaps they'd let her . . . no, they'd have orders not to let anyone out, it wouldn't matter
whether they knew her or not.
But there was another way out of the castle . . .
The saddle slipped from Arya's fingers and fell to the dirt with a thump and a puff of dust. Could she find
the room with the monsters again? She wasn't certain, yet she knew she had to try.
She found the clothing she'd gathered and slipped into the cloak, concealing Needle beneath its folds.
The rest of her things she tied in a
roll. With the bundle under her arm, she crept to the far end of the stable. Unlatching the back door, she
peeked out anxiously. She could hear the distant sound of swordplay, and the shivery wail of a man
screaming in pain across the bailey. She would need to go down the serpentine steps, past the small
kitchen and the pig yard, that was how she'd gone last time, chasing the black tomcat . . . only that would
take her right past the barracks of the gold cloaks. She couldn't go that way. Arya tried to think of
another way. If she crossed to the other side of the castle, she could creep along the river wall and
through the little godswood . . . but first she'd have to cross the yard, in the plain view of the guards on
the walls.
She had never seen so many men on the walls. Gold cloaks, most of them, armed with spears. Some of
them knew her by sight. What would they do if they saw her running across the yard? She'd look so
small from up there, would they be able to tell who she was? Would they care?
She had to leave now, she told herself, but when the moment came, she was too frightened to move.
Calm as still water, a small voice whispered in her ear. Arya was so startled she almost dropped her
bundle. She looked around wildly, but there was no one in the stable but her, and the horses, and the
dead men.
Quiet as a shadow, she heard. Was it her own voice, or Syrio's? She could not tell, yet somehow it
calmed her fears.
She stepped out of the stable.
It was the scariest thing she'd ever done. She wanted to run and hide, but she made herself walk across
the yard, slowly, putting one foot in front of the other as if she had all the time in the world and no reason
to be afraid of anyone. She thought she could feel their eyes, like bugs crawling on her skin under her
clothes. Arya never looked up. If she saw them watching, all her courage would desert her, she knew,
and she would drop the bundle of clothes and run and cry like a baby, and then they would have her. She
kept her gaze on the ground. By the time she reached the shadow of the royal sept on the far side of the
yard, Arya was cold with sweat, but no one had raised the hue and cry.
The sept was open and empty. Inside, half a hundred prayer candles burned in a fragrant silence. Arya
figured the gods would never miss two. She stuffed them up her sleeves, and left by a back window.
Sneaking back to the alley where she had cornered the one-eared tom was easy, but after that she got
lost. She crawled in and out of windows, hopped over walls, and felt her way through dark cellars, quiet


as a shadow. Once she heard a woman weeping. It took her more than an hour to find the low narrow
window that slanted down to the dungeon where the monsters waited.
She tossed her bundle through and doubled back to light her candle. That was chancy; the fire she'd
remembered seeing had burnt down to embers, and she heard voices as she was blowing on the coals.
Cupping her fingers around the flickering candle, she went out the window as they were coming in the
door, without ever getting a glimpse of who it was.
This time the monsters did not frighten her. They seemed almost old friends. Arya held the candle over
her head. With each step she took, the shadows moved against the walls, as if they were turning to watch
her pass. "Dragons, " she whispered. She slid Needle out from under her cloak. The slender blade
seemed very small and the dragons very big, yet somehow Arya felt better with steel in her hand.
The long windowless hall beyond the door was as black as she remembered. She held Needle in her left
hand, her sword hand, the candle in her right fist. Hot wax ran down across her knuckles. The entrance
to the well had been to the left, so Arya went right. Part of her wanted to run, but she was afraid of
snuffing out her candle. She heard the faint squeaking of rats and glimpsed a pair of tiny glowing eyes on
the edge of the light, but rats did not scare her. Other things did. It would be so easy to hide here, as she
had hidden from the wizard and the man with the forked beard. She could almost see the stableboy
standing against the wall, his hands curled into claws with the blood still dripping from the deep gashes in
his palms where Needle had cut him. He might be waiting to grab her as she passed. He would see her
candle coming a long way off. Maybe she would be better off without the light . . .
Fear cuts deeper than swords, the quiet voice inside her whispered. Suddenly Arya remembered the
crypts at Winterfell. They were a lot scarier than this place, she told herself. She'd been just a little girl the
first time she saw them. Her brother Robb had taken them down, her and Sansa and baby Bran, who'd
been no bigger than Rickon was now. They'd only had one candle between them, and Bran's eyes had
gotten as big as saucers as he stared at the stone faces of the Kings of Winter, with their wolves at their
feet and their iron swords across their laps.
Robb took them all the way down to the end, past Grandfather and Brandon and Lyanna, to show them
their own tombs. Sansa kept looking at the stubby little candle, anxious that it might go out. Old Nan had
told her there were spiders down here, and rats as big as dogs. Robb smiled when she said that. "There
are worse things than spiders
and rats," he whispered. "This is where the dead walk." That was when they heard the sound, low and
deep and shivery. Baby Bran had clutched at Arya's hand.
When the spirit stepped out of the open tomb, pale white and moaning for blood, Sansa ran shrieking for
the stairs, and Bran wrapped himself around Robb's leg, sobbing. Arya stood her ground and gave the
spirit a punch. It was only Jon, covered with flour. "You stupid," she told him, "you scared the baby," but
Jon and Robb just laughed and laughed, and pretty soon Bran and Arya were laughing too.
The memory made Arya smile, and after that the darkness held no more terrors for her. The stableboy
was dead, she'd killed him, and if he jumped out at her she'd kill him again. She was going home.
Everything would be better once she was home again, safe behind Winterfell's grey granite walls.


Her footsteps sent soft echoes hurrying ahead of her as Arya plunged deeper into the darkness.
SANSA
They came for Sansa on the third day.
She chose a simple dress of dark grey wool, plainly cut but richly embroidered around the collar and
sleeves. Her fingers felt thick and clumsy as she struggled with the silver fastenings without the benefit of
servants. Jeyne Poole had been confined with her, but Jeyne was useless. Her face was puffy from all her
crying, and she could not seem to stop sobbing about her father.
"I'm certain your father is well," Sansa told her when she had finally gotten the dress buttoned right. "I'll
ask the queen to let you see him." She thought that kindness might lift Jeyne's spirits, but the other girl just
looked at her with red, swollen eyes and began to cry all the harder. She was such a child.
Sansa had wept too, the first day. Even within the stout walls of Maegor's Holdfast, with her door
closed and barred, it was hard not to be terrified when the killing began. She had grown up to the sound
of steel in the yard, and scarcely a day of her life had passed without hearing the clash of sword on
sword, yet somehow knowing that the fighting was real made all the difference in the world. She heard it
as she had never heard it before, and there were other sounds as well, grunts of pain, angry curses,
shouts for help, and the moans of wounded and dying men. In the songs, the knights never screamed nor
begged for mercy.
So she wept, pleading through her door for them to tell her what was happening, calling for her father,
for Septa Mordane, for the king, for her gallant prince. If the men guarding her heard her pleas, they gave
no answer. The only time the door opened was late that night, when they thrust Jeyne Poole inside,
bruised and shaking. "They're killing everyone, " the steward's daughter had shrieked at her. She went on
and on. The Hound had broken down her door with a warhammer, she said. There were bodies on the
stair of the Tower of the Hand, and the steps were slick with blood. Sansa dried her own tears as she
struggled to comfort her friend. They went to sleep in the same bed, cradled in each other's arms like
sisters.
The second day was even worse. The room where Sansa had been confined was at the top of the
highest tower of Maegor's Holdfast. From its window, she could see that the heavy iron portcullis in the
gatehouse was down, and the drawbridge drawn up over the deep dry moat that separated the
keep-within-a-keep from the larger castle that surrounded it. Lannister guardsmen prowled the walls with
spears and crossbows to hand. The fighting was over, and the silence of the grave had settled over the
Red Keep. The only sounds were Jeyne Poole's endless whimpers and sobs.
They were fed-hard cheese and fresh-baked bread and milk to break their fast, roast chicken and
greens at midday, and a late supper of beef and barley stew-but the servants who brought the meals
would not answer Sansa's questions. That evening, some women brought her clothes from the Tower of
the Hand, and some of Jeyne's things as well, but they seemed nearly as frightened as Jeyne, and when
she tried to talk to them, they fled from her as if she had the grey plague. The guards outside the door still
refused to let them leave the room.


"Please, I need to speak to the queen again," Sansa told them, as she told everyone she saw that day.
"She'll want to talk to me, I know she will. Tell her I want to see her, please. If not the queen, then Prince
Joffrey, if you'd be so kind. We're to marry when we're older."
At sunset on the second day, a great bell began to ring. Its voice was deep and sonorous, and the long
slow clanging filled Sansa with a sense of dread. The ringing went on and on, and after a while they heard
other bells answering from the Great Sept of Baelor on Visenya's Hill. The sound rumbled across the city
like thunder, warning of the storm to come.
"What is it?" Jeyne asked, covering her ears. "Why are they ringing the bells?"
"The king is dead." Sansa could not say how she knew it, yet she
did. The slow, endless clanging filled their room, as mournful as a dirge. Had some enemy stormed the
castle and murdered King Robert? Was that the meaning of the fighting they had heard?
She went to sleep wondering, restless, and fearful. Was her beautiful Joffrey the king now? Or had they
killed him too? She was afraid for him, and for her father. If only they would tell her what was happening
. . .
That night Sansa dreamt of Joffrey on the throne, with herself seated beside him in a gown of woven
gold. She had a crown on her head, and everyone she had ever known came before her, to bend the
knee and say their courtesies.
The next morning, the morning of the third day, Ser Boros Blount of the Kingsguard came to escort her
to the queen.
Ser Boros was an ugly man with a broad chest and short, bandy legs. His nose was flat, his cheeks
baggy with jowls, his hair grey and brittle. Today he wore white velvet, and his snowy cloak was
fastened with a lion brooch. The beast had the soft sheen of gold, and his eyes were tiny rubies. "You
look very handsome and splendid this morning, Ser Boros," Sansa told him. A lady remembered her
courtesies, and she was resolved to be a lady no matter what.
"And you, my lady," Ser Boros said in a flat voice. "Her Grace awaits. Come with me."
There were guards outside her door, Lannister men-at-arms in crimson cloaks and lion-crested helms.
Sansa made herself smile at them pleasantly and bid them a good morning as she passed. It was the first
time she had been allowed outside the chamber since Ser Arys Oakheart had led her there two mornings
past. "To keep you safe, my sweet one," Queen Cersei had told her. "Joffrey would never forgive me if
anything happened to his precious."
Sansa had expected that Ser Boros would escort her to the royal apartments, but instead he led her out
of Maegor's Holdfast. The bridge was down again. Some workmen were lowering a man on ropes into
the depths of the dry moat. When Sansa peered down, she saw a body impaled on the huge iron spikes
below. She averted her eyes quickly, afraid to ask, afraid to look too long, afraid he might be someone
she knew.
They found Queen Cersei in the council chambers, seated at the head of a long table littered with
papers, candles, and blocks of sealing wax. The room was as splendid as any that Sansa had ever seen.


She stared in awe at the carved wooden screen and the twin sphinxes that sat beside the door.
"Your Grace," Ser Boros said when they were ushered inside by
another of the Kingsguard, Ser Mandon of the curiously dead face, "I've brought the girl."
Sansa had hoped Joffrey might be with her. Her prince was not there, but three of the king's councillors
were. Lord Petyr Baelish sat on the queen's left hand, Grand Maester Pycelle at the end of the table,
while Lord Varys hovered over them, smelling flowery. All of them were clad in black, she realized with
a feeling of dread. Mourning clothes . . .
The queen wore a high-collared black silk gown, with a hundred dark red rubies sewn into her bodice,
covering her from neck to bosom. They were cut in the shape of teardrops, as if the queen were weeping
blood. Cersei smiled to see her, and Sansa thought it was the sweetest and saddest smile she had ever
seen. "Sansa, my sweet child," she said, "I know you've been asking for me. I'm sorry that I could not
send for you sooner. Matters have been very unsettled, and I have not had a moment. I trust my people
have been taking good care of you?"
"Everyone has been very sweet and pleasant, Your Grace, thank you ever so much for asking," Sansa
said politely. "Only, well, no one will talk to us or tell us what's happened
"Us?" Cersei seemed puzzled.
"We put the steward's girl in with her," Ser Boros said. "We did not know what else to do with her."
The queen frowned. "Next time, you will ask," she said, her voice sharp. "The gods only know what sort
of tales she's been filling Sansa's head with."
"Jeyne's scared," Sansa said. "She won't stop crying. I promised her I'd ask if she could see her father."
Old Grand Maester Pycelle lowered his eyes.
"Her father is well, isn't he?" Sansa said anxiously. She knew there had been fighting, but surely no one
would harm a steward. Vayon Poole did not even wear a sword.
Queen Cersei looked at each of the councillors in turn. "I won't have Sansa fretting needlessly. What
shall we do with this little friend of hers, my lords?"
Lord Petyr leaned forward. "I'll find a place for her."
"Not in the city," said the queen.
"Do you take me for a fool?"
The queen ignored that. "Ser Boros, escort this girl to Lord Petyr's apartments and instruct his people to
keep her there until he comes for her. Tell her that Littlefinger will be taking her to see her father, that
ought to calm her down. I want her gone before Sansa returns to her chamber."


"As you command, Your Grace," Ser Boros said. He bowed deeply, spun on his heel, and took his
leave, his long white cloak stirring the air behind him.
Sansa was confused. "I don't understand," she said. "Where is Jeyne's father? Why can't Ser Boros take
her to him instead of Lord Petyr having to do it?" She had promised herself she would be a lady, gentle
as the queen and as strong as her mother, the Lady Catelyn, but all of a sudden she was scared again.
For a second she thought she might cry. "Where are you sending her? She hasn't done anything wrong,
she's a good girl."
"She's upset you," the queen said gently. "We can't be having that. Not another word, now. Lord Baelish
will see that Jeyne's well taken care of, I promise you." She patted the chair beside her. "Sit down,
Sansa. I want to talk to you."
Sansa seated herself beside the queen. Cersei smiled again, but that did not make her feel any less
anxious. Varys was wringing his soft hands together, Grand Maester Pycelle kept his sleepy eyes on the
papers in front of him, but she could feel Littlefinger staring. Something about the way the small man
looked at her made Sansa feel as though she had no clothes on. Goose bumps pimpled her skin.
"Sweet Sansa," Queen Cersei said, laying a soft hand on her wrist. "Such a beautiful child. I do hope you
know how much Joffrey and I love you."
"You do?" Sansa said, breathless. Littlefinger was forgotten. Her prince loved her. Nothing else
mattered.
The queen smiled. "I think of you almost as my own daughter. And I know the love you bear for
Joffrey." She gave a weary shake of her head. "I am afraid we have some grave news about your lord
father. You must be brave, child."
Her quiet words gave Sansa a chill. "What is it?"
"Your father is a traitor, dear," Lord Varys said.
Grand Maester Pycelle lifted his ancient head. "With my own ears, I heard Lord Eddard swear to our
beloved King Robert that he would protect the young princes as if they were his own sons. And yet the
moment the king was dead, he called the small council together to steal Prince Joffrey's rightful throne."
"No," Sansa blurted. "He wouldn't do that. He wouldn't!"
The queen picked up a letter. The paper was torn and stiff with dried blood, but the broken seal was her
father's, the direwolf stamped in pale wax. "We found this on the captain of your household guard,
Sansa. It is a letter to my late husband's brother Stannis, inviting him to take the crown."
"Please, Your Grace, there's been a mistake." Sudden panic made her dizzy and faint. "Please, send for
my father, he'll tell you, he would never write such a letter, the king was his friend."
"Robert thought so," said the queen. "This betrayal would have broken his heart. The gods are kind, that
he did not live to see it." She sighed. "Sansa, sweetling, you must see what a dreadful position this has left
us in. You are innocent of any wrong, we all know that, and yet you are the daughter of a traitor. How


can I allow you to marry my son?"
"But I love him," Sansa wailed, confused and frightened. What did they mean to do to her? What had
they done to her father? It was not supposed to happen this way. She had to wed Joffrey, they were
betrothed, he was promised to her, she had even dreamed about it. It wasn't fair to take him away from
her on account of whatever her father might have done.
"How well I know that, child," Cersei said, her voice so kind and sweet. "Why else should you have
come to me and told me of your father's plan to send you away from us, if not for love?"
"It was for love," Sansa said in a rush. "Father wouldn't even give me leave to say farewell." She was the
good girl, the obedient girl, but she had felt as wicked as Arya that morning, sneaking away from Septa
Mordane, defying her lord father. She had never done anything so willful before, and she would never
have done it then if she hadn't loved Joffrey as much as she did. "He was going to take me back to
Winterfell and marry me to some hedge knight, even though it was Joff I wanted. I told him, but he
wouldn't listen." The king had been her last hope. The king could command Father to let her stay in
King's Landing and marry Prince Joffrey, Sansa knew he could, but the king had always frightened her.
He was loud and rough-voiced and drunk as often as not, and he would probably have just sent her back
to Lord Eddard, if they even let her see him. So she went to the queen instead, and poured out her heart,
and Cersei had listened and thanked her sweetly . . . only then Ser Arys had escorted her to the high
room in Maegor's Holdfast and posted guards, and a few hours later, the fighting had begun outside.
"Please," she finished, "you have to let me marry Joffrey, I'll be ever so good a wife to him, you'll see. I'll
be a queen just like you, I promise."
Queen Cersei looked to the others. "My lords of the council, what do you say to her plea?"
"The poor child," murmured Varys. "A love so true and innocent, Your Grace, it would be cruel to deny
it . . . and yet, what can we do?
Her father stands condemned." His soft hands washed each other in a gesture of helpless distress.
"A child born of traitor's seed will find that betrayal comes naturally to her," said Grand Maester Pycelle.
"She is a sweet thing now, but in ten years, who can say what treasons she may hatch?"
"No, " Sansa said, horrified. "I'm not, I'd never . . . I wouldn't betray Joffrey, I love him, I swear it, I
do."
"Oh, so poignant," said Varys. "And yet, it is truly said that blood runs truer than oaths."
"She reminds me of the mother, not the father," Lord Petyr Baelish said quietly. "Look at her. The hair,
the eyes. She is the very image of Cat at the same age."
The queen looked at her, troubled, and yet Sansa could see kindness in her clear green eyes. "Child,"
she said, "if I could truly believe that you were not like your father, why nothing should please me more
than to see you wed to my Joffrey. I know he loves you with all his heart." She sighed. "And yet, I fear
that Lord Varys and the Grand Maester have the right of it. The blood will tell. I have only to remember
how your sister set her wolf on my son."
"I'm not like Arya," Sansa blurted. "She has the traitor's blood, not me. I'm good, ask Septa Mordane,


she'll tell you, I only want to be Joffrey's loyal and loving wife."
She felt the weight of Cersei's eyes as the queen studied her face. "I believe you mean it, child." She
turned to face the others. "My lords, it seems to me that if the rest of her kin were to remain loyal in this
terrible time, that would go a long way toward laying our fears to rest."
Grand Maester Pycelle stroked his huge soft beard, his wide brow furrowed in thought. "Lord Eddard
has three sons."
"Mere boys," Lord Petyr said with a shrug. "I should be more concerned with Lady Catelyn and the
Tullys."
The queen took Sansa's hand in both of hers. "Child, do you know your letters?"
Sansa nodded nervously. She could read and write better than any of her brothers, although she was
hopeless at sums.
"I am pleased to hear that. Perhaps there is hope for you and Joffrey still . . ."
"What do you want me to do?"
"You must write your lady mother, and your brother, the eldest . . . what is his name?"
"Robb," Sansa said.
"The word of your lord father's treason will no doubt reach them
soon. Better that it should come from you. You must tell them how Lord Eddard betrayed his king."
Sansa wanted Joffrey desperately, but she did not think she had the courage to do as the queen was
asking. "But he never . . . I don't . . . Your Grace, I wouldn't know what to say . . ."
The queen patted her hand. "We will tell you what to write, child. The important thing is that you urge
Lady Catelyn and your brother to keep the king's peace."
"It will go hard for them if they don't," said Grand Maester Pycelle. "By the love you bear them, you
must urge them to walk the path of wisdom."
"Your lady mother will no doubt fear for you dreadfully," the queen said. "You must tell her that you are
well and in our care, that we are treating you gently and seeing to your every want. Bid them to come to
King's Landing and pledge their fealty to Joffrey when he takes his throne. If they do that . . . why, then
we shall know that there is no taint in your blood, and when you come into the flower of your
womanhood, you shall wed the king in the Great Sept of Baelor, before the eyes of gods and men."
. . . wed the king . . . The words made her breath come faster, yet still Sansa hesitated. "Perhaps . . . if I
might see my father, talk to him about . . ."
"Treason?" Lord Varys hinted.


"You disappoint me, Sansa," the queen said, with eyes gone hard as stones. "We've told you of your
father's crimes. If you are truly as loyal as you say, why should you want to see him?"
"I . . . I only meant Sansa felt her eyes grow wet. "He's not
. . . please, he hasn't been . . . hurt, or . . . or . . .
,:Lord Eddard has not been harmed," the queen said. But . . . what's to become of him?"
"That is a matter for the king to decide," Grand Maester Pycelle announced ponderously.
The king! Sansa blinked back her tears. Joffrey was the king now, she thought. Her gallant prince would
never hurt her father, no matter what he might have done. If she went to him and pleaded for mercy, she
was certain he'd listen. He had to listen, he loved her, even the queen said so. Joff would need to punish
Father, the lords would expect it, but perhaps he could send him back to Winterfell, or exile him to one
of the Free Cities across the narrow sea. It would only have to be for a few years. By then she and
Joffrey would be married. Once she was queen, she could persuade Joff to bring Father back and grant
him a pardon.
Only ... if Mother or Robb did anything treasonous, called the banners or refused to swear fealty or
anything, it would all go wrong. Her Joffrey was good and kind, she knew it in her heart, but a king had
to be stern with rebels. She had to make them understand, she had to!
"I'll . I'll write the letters," Sansa told them.
With a smile as warm as the sunrise, Cersei Lannister leaned close and kissed her gently on the cheek. "I
knew you would. Joffrey will be so proud when I tell him what courage and good sense you've shown
here today."
In the end, she wrote four letters. To her mother, the Lady Catelyn Stark, and to her brothers at
Winterfell, and to her aunt and her grandfather as well, Lady Lysa Arryn of the Eyrie, and Lord Hoster
Tully of Riverrun. By the time she had done, her fingers were cramped and stiff and stained with ink.
Varys had her father's seal. She warmed the pale white beeswax over a candle, poured it carefully, and
watched as the eunuch stamped each letter with the direwolf of House Stark.
Jeyne Poole and all her things were gone when Ser Mandon Moore returned Sansa to the high tower of
Maegor's Holdfast. No more weeping, she thought gratefully. Yet somehow it seemed colder with Jeyne
gone, even after she'd built a fire. She pulled a chair close to the hearth, took down one of her favorite
books, and lost herself in the stories of Florian and Jonquil, of Lady Shella and the Rainbow Knight, of
valiant Prince Aemon and his doomed love for his brother's queen.
It was not until later that night, as she was drifting off to sleep, that Sansa realized she had forgotten to
ask about her sister.
JON
"Othor," announced Ser Jaremy Rykker, "beyond a doubt. And this one was Jafer Flowers." He turned


the corpse over with his foot, and the dead white face stared up at the overcast sky with blue, blue eyes.
"They were Ben Stark's men, both of them."
My uncle's men, Jon thought numbly. He remembered how he'd pleaded to ride with them. Gods, I was
such a green boy. If he had taken me, it might be me lying here . . .
Jafer's right wrist ended in the ruin of torn flesh and splintered bone left by Ghost'sjaws. His right hand
was floating in ajar of vinegar back in Maester Aemon's tower. His left hand, still at the end of his arm,
was as black as his cloak.
"Gods have mercy," the Old Bear muttered. He swung down from his garron, handing his reins to Jon.
The morning was unnaturally warm; beads of sweat dotted the Lord Commander's broad forehead like
dew on a melon. His horse was nervous, rolling her eyes, backing away from the dead men as far as her
lead would allow. Jon led her off a few paces, fighting to keep her from bolting. The horses did not like
the feel of this place. For that matter, neither did Jon.
The dogs liked it least of all. Ghost had led the party here; the pack of hounds had been useless. When
Bass the kennelmaster had tried to get them to take the scent from the severed hand, they had gone wild,
yowling and barking, fighting to get away. Even now they were snarling and whimpering by turns, pulling
at their leashes while Chett cursed them for curs.
It is only a wood, Jon told himself, and they're only dead men. He had seen dead men before . . .
Last night he had dreamt the Winterfell dream again. He was wandering the empty castle, searching for
his father, descending into the crypts. Only this time the dream had gone further than before. In the dark
he'd heard the scrape of stone on stone. When he turned he saw that the vaults were opening, one after
the other. As the dead kings came stumbling from their cold black graves, Jon had woken in pitchdark,
his heart hammering. Even when Ghost leapt up on the bed to nuzzle at his face, he could not shake his
deep sense of terror. He dared not go back to sleep. Instead he had climbed the Wall and walked,
restless, until he saw the light of the dawn off to the cast. It was only a dream. I am a brother of the
Night's Watch now, not a ffightened boy.
Samwell Tarly huddled beneath the trees, half-hidden behind the horses. His round fat face was the
color of curdled milk. So far he had not lurched off to the woods to retch, but he had not so much as
glanced at the dead men either. "I can't look," he whispered miserably.
"You have to look," Jon told him, keeping his voice low so the others would not hear. "Maester Aemon
sent you to be his eyes, didn't he? What good are eyes if they're shut?"
"Yes, but . . . I'm such a coward, Jon."
Jon put a hand on Sam's shoulder. "We have a dozen rangers with us, and the dogs, even Ghost. No
one will hurt you, Sam. Go ahead and look. The first look is the hardest."
Sam gave a tremulous nod, working up his courage with a visible effort. Slowly he swiveled his head.
His eyes widened, but Jon held his arm so he could not turn away.
"Ser Jaremy," the Old Bear asked gruffly, "Ben Stark had six men with him when he rode from the Wall.


Where are the others?"
Ser Jaremy shook his head. "Would that I knew."
Plainly Mormont was not pleased with that answer. "Two of our brothers butchered almost within sight
of the Wall, yet your rangers heard nothing, saw nothing. Is this what the Night's Watch has fallen to? Do
we still sweep these woods?"
"Yes, my lord, but-"
"Do we still mount watches?"
"We do, but-"
"This man wears a hunting horn." Mormont pointed at Othor. "Must I suppose that he died without
sounding it? Or have your rangers all gone deaf as well as blind?"
Ser Jaremy bristled, his face taut with anger. "No horn was blown, my lord, or my rangers would have
heard it. I do not have sufficient men to mount as many patrols as I should like . . . and since Benjen was
lost, we have stayed closer to the Wall than we were wont to do before, by your own command."
The Old Bear grunted. "Yes. Well. Be that as it may." He made an impatient gesture. "Tell me how they
died."
Squatting beside the dead man he had named Jafer Flowers, Ser Jaremy grasped his head by the scalp.
The hair came out between his fingers, brittle as straw. The knight cursed and shoved at the face with the
heel of his hand. A great gash in the side of the corpse's neck opened like a mouth, crusted with dried
blood. Only a few ropes of pale tendon still attached the head to the neck. "This was done with an axe."
"Aye," muttered Dywen, the old forester. "Belike the axe that Othor carried, m'lord."
Jon could feel his breakfast churning in his belly, but he pressed his lips together and made himself look
at the second body. Othor had been a big ugly man, and he made a big ugly corpse. No axe was in
evidence. Jon remembered Othor; he had been the one bellowing the bawdy song as the rangers rode
out. His singing days were done. His flesh was blanched white as milk, everywhere but his hands. His
hands were black like Jafer's. Blossoms of hard cracked blood decorated the mortal wounds that
covered him like a rash, breast and groin and throat. Yet his eyes were still open. They stared up at the
sky, blue as sapphires.
Ser Jaremy stood. "The wildlings have axes too."
Mormont rounded on him. "So you believe this is Mance Rayder's work? This close to the Wall?"
"Who else, my lord?"
Jon could have told him. He knew, they all knew, yet no man of them would say the words. The Others
are only a story, a tale to make children shiver. If they ever lived at all, they are gone eight thousand
years. Even the thought made him feel foolish; he was a man grown now, a black brother of the Night's
Watch, not the boy who'd once sat at Old Nan's feet with Bran and Robb and Arya.


Yet Lord Commander Mormont gave a snort. "If Ben Stark had come under wildling attack a half day's
ride from Castle Black, he
would have returned for more men, chased the killers through all seven hells and brought me back their
heads."
"Unless he was slain as well," Ser Jaremy insisted.
The words hurt, even now. It had been so long, it seemed folly to cling to the hope that Ben Stark was
still alive, but Jon Snow was nothing if not stubborn.
"It has been close on half a year since Benjen left us, my lord," Ser Jaremy went on. "The forest is vast.
The wildlings might have fallen on him anywhere. I'd wager these two were the last survivors of his party,
on their way back to us . . . but the enemy caught them before they could reach the safety of the Wall.
The corpses are still fresh, these men cannot have been dead more than a day
"No, " Samwell Tarly squeaked.
Jon was startled. Sam's nervous, high-pitched voice was the last he would have expected to hear. The
fat boy was frightened of the officers, and Ser Jaremy was not known for his patience.
"I did not ask for your views, boy," Rykker said coldly.
"Let him speak, ser," Jon blurted.
Mormont's eyes flicked from Sam to Jon and back again. "If the lad has something to say, I'll hear him
out. Come closer, boy. We can't see you behind those horses."
Sam edged past Jon and the garrons, sweating profusely. "My lord, it . . . it can't be a day or . . . look . .
. the blood . . ."
"Yes?" Mormont growled impatiently. "Blood, what of it?"
"He soils his smallclothes at the sight of it," Chett shouted out, and the rangers laughed.
Sam mopped at the sweat on his brow. "You . . . you can see where Ghost . . . Jon's direwolf . . . you
can see where he tore off that man's hand, and yet . . . the stump hasn't bled, look . . ." He waved a
hand. "My father . . . L-lord Randyll, he, he made me watch him dress animals sometimes, when . . . after
. . ." Sam shook his head from side to side, his chins quivering. Now that he had looked at the bodies, he
could not seem to look away. "A fresh kill . . . the blood would still flow, my lords. Later . . . later it
would be clotted, like a . . . a jelly, thick and . . . and . . ." He looked as though he was going to be sick.
"This man . . . look at the wrist, it's all . . . crusty . . . dry . . . like . . . "
Jon saw at once what Sam meant. He could see the torn veins in the dead man's wrist, iron worms in the
pale flesh. His blood was a black dust. Yet Jaremy Rykker was unconvinced. "If they'd been dead much
longer than a day, they'd be ripe by now, boy. They don't even smell."
Dywen, the gnarled old forester who liked to boast that he could


smell snow coming on, sidled closer to the corpses and took a whiff. "Well, they're no pansy flowers,
but ... m'lord has the truth of it. There's no corpse stink."
"They . . . they aren't rotting." Sam pointed, his fat finger shaking only a little. "Look, there's . . . there's
no maggots or . . . or . . . worms or anything . . . they've been lying here in the woods, but they . . . they
haven't been chewed or eaten by animals . . . only Ghost . . . otherwise they're . . . they're . . ."
"Untouched," Jon said softly. "And Ghost is different. The dogs and the horses won't go near them."
The rangers exchanged glances; they could see it was true, every man of them. Mormont frowned,
glancing from the corpses to the dogs. "Chett, bring the hounds closer."
Chett tried, cursing, yanking on the leashes, giving one animal a lick of his boot. Most of the dogs just
whimpered and planted their feet. He tried dragging one. The bitch resisted, growling and squirming as if
to escape her collar. Finally she lunged at him. Chett dropped the leash and stumbled backward. The
dog leapt over him and bounded off into the trees.
"This . . . this is all wrong," Sam Tarly said earnestly. "The blood . . . there's bloodstains on their clothes,
and . . . and their flesh, dry and hard, but . . . there's none on the ground, or . . . anywhere. With those . .
. those . . . those . . ." Sam made himself swallow, took a deep breath. "With those wounds . . . terrible
wounds . . . there should be blood all over. Shouldn't there?"
Dywen sucked at his wooden teeth. "Might be they didn't die here. Might be someone brought 'ern and
left 'ern for us. A warning, as like." The old forester peered down suspiciously. "And might be I'm a fool,
but I don't know that Othor never had no blue eyes afore."
Ser Jaremy looked startled. "Neither did Flowers," he blurted, turning to stare at the dead man.
A silence fell over the wood. For a moment all they heard was Sam's heavy breathing and the wet sound
of Dywen sucking on his teeth. Jon squatted beside Ghost.
"Bum them, " someone whispered. One of the rangers; Jon could not have said who. "Yes, burn them," a
second voice urged.
The Old Bear gave a stubborn shake of his head. "Not yet. I want Maester Aemon to have a look at
them. We'll bring them back to the Wall."
Some commands are more easily given than obeyed. They wrapped the dead men in cloaks, but when
Hake and Dywen tried to tie one onto a horse, the animal went mad, screaming and rearing, lashing out
with its hooves, even biting at Ketter when he ran to help. The rangers had no better luck with the other
garrons; not even the most placid wanted any part of these burdens. In the end they were forced to hack
off branches and fashion crude slings to carry the corpses back on foot. It was well past midday by the
time they started back.
"I will have these woods searched," Mormont commanded Ser Jaremy as they set out. "Every tree,


every rock, every bush, and every foot of muddy ground within ten leagues of here. Use all the men you
have, and if you do not have enough, borrow hunters and foresters from the stewards. If Ben and the
others are out here, dead or alive, I will have them found. And if there is anyone else in these woods, I
will know of it. You are to track them and take them, alive if possible. Is that understood?"
"It is, my lord," Ser Jaremy said. "It will be done."
After that, Mormont rode in silence, brooding. Jon followed close behind him; as the Lord
Commander's steward, that was his place. The day was grey, damp, overcast, the sort of day that made
you wish for rain. No wind stirred the wood; the air hung humid and heavy, and Jon's clothes clung to his
skin. It was warm. Too warm. The Wall was weeping copiously, had been weeping for days, and
sometimes Jon even imagined it was shrinking.
The old men called this weather spirit summer, and said it meant the season was giving up its ghosts at
last. After this the cold would come, they warned, and a long summer always meant a long winter. This
summer had lasted ten years. Jon had been a babe in arms when it began.
Ghost ran with them for a time and then vanished among the trees. Without the direwolf, Jon felt almost
naked. He found himself glancing at every shadow with unease. Unbidden, he thought back on the tales
that Old Nan used to tell them, when he was a boy at Winterfell. He could almost hear her voice again,
and the click-click-click of her needles. In that darkness, the Others came riding, she used to say,
dropping her voice lower and lower. Cold and dead they were, and they hated iron and fire and the
touch of the sun, and every living creature with hot blood in its veins. Holdfasts and cities and kingdoms
of men allfell before them, as they moved south on pale dead horses, leading hosts of the slain. They fed
their dead servants on the flesh of human children . . .
When he caught his first glimpse of the Wall looming above the tops of an ancient gnarled oak, Jon was
vastly relieved. Mormont reined up suddenly and turned in his saddle. "Tarly," he barked, "come here."
Jon saw the start of fright on Sam's face as he lumbered up on his mare; doubtless he thought he was in
trouble. "You're fat but you're
not stupid, boy," the Old Bear said gruffly. "You did well back there. And you, Snow."
Sam blushed a vivid crimson and tripped over his own tongue as he tried to stammer out a courtesy. Jon
had to smile.
When they emerged from under the trees, Mormont spurred his tough little garron to a trot. Ghost came
streaking out from the woods to meet them, licking his chops, his muzzle red from prey. High above, the
men on the Wall saw the column approaching. Jon heard the deep, throaty call of the watchman's great
horn, calling out across the miles; a single long blast that shuddered through the trees and echoed off the
ice.
UUUUUUUOOOOOOOOOOOOOOooooooooooooooooooooooo.
The sound faded slowly to silence. One blast meant rangers returning, and Jon thought, I was a rangerfor
one day, at least. Whatever may come, they cannot take that away from me.
Bowen Marsh was waiting at the first gate as they led their garrons through the icy tunnel. The Lord


Steward was red-faced and agitated. "My lord," he blurted at Mormont as he swung open the iron bars,
"there's been a bird, you must come at once."
"What is it, man?" Mormont said gruffly.
Curiously, Marsh glanced at Jon before he answered. "Maester Aemon has the letter. He's waiting in
your solar."
"Very well. Jon, see to my horse, and tell Ser Jaremy to put the dead men in a storeroom until the
maester is ready for them." Mormont strode away grumbling.
As they led their horses back to the stable, Jon was uncomfortably aware that people were watching
him. Ser Alliser Thorne was drilling his boys in the yard, but he broke off to stare at Jon, a faint half smile
on his lips. One-armed Donal Noye stood in the door of the armory. "The gods be with you, Snow," he
called out.
Something's wrong, Jon thought. Something's very wrong.
The dead men were carried to one of the storerooms along the base of the Wall, a dark cold cell
chiseled from the ice and used to keep meat and grain and sometimes even beer. Jon saw that
Mormont's horse was fed and watered and groomed before he took care of his own. Afterward he
sought out his friends. Grenn and Toad were on watch, but he found Pyp in the common hall. "What's
happened?" he asked.
Pyp lowered his voice. "The king's dead."
Jon was stunned. Robert Baratheon had looked old and fat when he visited Winterfell, yet he'd seemed
hale enough, and there'd been no talk of illness. "How can you know?"
"One of the guards overheard Clydas reading the letter to Maester Aemon." Pyp leaned close. "Jon, I'm
sorry. He was your father's friend, wasn't he?"
"They were as close as brothers, once." Jon wondered if Joffrey would keep his father as the King's
Hand. It did not seem likely. That might mean Lord Eddard would return to Winterfell, and his sisters as
well. He might even be allowed to visit them, with Lord Mormont's permission. It would be good to see
Arya's grin again and to talk with his father. I will ask him about my mother, he resolved. I am a man
now, it is past time he told me. Even if she was a whore, I don't care, I want to know.
"I heard Hake say the dead men were your uncle's," Pyp said.
"Yes," Jon replied. "Two of the six he took with him. They'd been dead a long time, only . . . the bodies
are queer."
"Queer?" Pyp was all curiosity. "How queer?"
"Sam will tell you." Jon did not want to talk of it. "I should see if the Old Bear has need of me."
He walked to the Lord Commander's Tower alone, with a curious sense of apprehension. The brothers
on guard eyed him solemnly as he approached. "The Old Bear's in his solar," one of them announced.


"He was asking for you."
Jon nodded. He should have come straight from the stable. He climbed the tower steps briskly. He
wants wine or a fire in his hearth, that's all, he told himself.
When he entered the solar, Mormont's raven screamed at him. "Corn!" the bird shrieked. "Corn! Corn!
Corn!"
"Don't you believe it, I just fed him," the Old Bear growled. He was seated by the window, reading a
letter. "Bring me a cup of wine, and pour one for yourself."
"For myself, my lord?"
Mormont lifted his eyes from the letter to stare at Jon. There was pity in that look; he could taste it. "You
heard me."
Jon poured with exaggerated care, vaguely aware that he was drawing out the act. When the cups were
filled, he would have no choice but to face whatever was in that letter. Yet all too soon, they were filled.
"Sit, boy," Mormont commanded him. "Drink."
Jon remained standing. "It's my father, isn't it?"
The Old Bear tapped the letter with a finger. "Your father and the king," he rumbled. "I won't lie to you,
it's grievous news. I never thought to see another king, not at my age, with Robert half my years and
strong as a bull." He took a gulp of wine. "They say the king loved to hunt. The things we love destroy us
every time, lad. Remember that.
My son loved that young wife of his. Vain woman. If not for her, he would never have thought to sell
those poachers."
Jon could scarcely follow what he was saying. "My lord, I don't understand. What's happened to my
father?"
"I told you to sit," Mormont grumbled. "Sit, " the raven screamed. "And have a drink, damn you. That's
a command, Snow."
Jon sat, and took a sip of wine.
"Lord Eddard has been imprisoned. He is charged with treason. It is said he plotted with Robert's
brothers to deny the throne to Prince Joffrey."
"No," Jon said at once. "That couldn't be. My father would never betray the king!"
"Be that as it may," said Mormont. "It is not for me to say. Nor for you.,,
"But it's a lie," Jon insisted. How could they think his father was a traitor, had they all gone mad? Lord
Eddard Stark would never dishonor himself . . . would he?
He fathered a bastard, a small voice whispered inside him. Where was the honor in that? And your


mother, what of her? He will not even speak her name.
"My lord, what will happen to him? Will they kill him?"
"As to that, I cannot say, lad. I mean to send a letter. I knew some of the king's councillors in my youth.
Old Pycelle, Lord Stannis, Ser Barristan . . . Whatever your father has done, or hasn't done, he is a great
lord. He must be allowed to take the black and join us here. Gods knows, we need men of Lord
Eddard's ability."
Jon knew that other men accused of treason had been allowed to redeem their honor on the Wall in
days past. Why not Lord Eddard? His father here. That was a strange thought, and strangely
uncomfortable. It would be a monstrous injustice to strip him of Winterfell and force him to take the
black, and yet if it meant his life . . .
And would Joffrey allow it? He remembered the prince at Winterfell, the way he'd mocked Robb and
Ser Rodrik in the yard. Jon himself he had scarcely even noticed; bastards were beneath even his
contempt. "My lord, will the king listen to you?"
The Old Bear shrugged. "A boy king . . . I imagine he'll listen to his mother. A pity the dwarf isn't with
them. He's the lad's uncle, and he saw our need when he visited us. It was a bad thing, your lady mother
taking him captive-"
"Lady Stark is not my mother," Jon reminded him sharply. Tyrion Lannister had been a friend to him. If
Lord Eddard was killed, she
would be as much to blame as the queen. "My lord, what of my sisters? Arya and Sansa, they were with
my father, do you know-"
"Pycelle makes no mention of them, but doubtless they'll be treated gently. I will ask about them when I
write." Mormont shook his head. "This could not have happened at a worse time. If ever the realm
needed a strong king . . . there are dark days and cold nights ahead, I feel it in my bones . . ." He gave
Jon a long shrewd look. "I hope you are not thinking of doing anything stupid, boy."
He's myfather, Jon wanted to say, but he knew that Mormont would not want to hear it. His throat was
dry. He made himself take another sip of wine.
"Your duty is here now," the Lord Commander reminded him. "Your old life ended when you took the
black." His bird made a raucous echo. "Black. " Mormont took no notice. "Whatever they do in King's
Landing is none of our concern." When Jon did not answer, the old man finished his wine and said,
"You're free to go. I'll have no further need of you today. On the morrow you can help me write that
letter."
Jon did not remember standing or leaving the solar. The next he knew, he was descending the tower
steps, thinking, This is my father, my sisters, how can it be none of my concern?
Outside, one of the guards looked at him and said, "Be strong, boy. The gods are cruel."
They know, Jon realized. "My father is no traitor," he said hoarsely. Even the words stuck in his throat,
as if to choke him. The wind was rising, and it seemed colder in the yard than it had when he'd gone in.


Spirit summer was drawing to an end.
The rest of the afternoon passed as if in a dream. Jon could not have said where he walked, what he did,
who he spoke with. Ghost was with him, he knew that much. The silent presence of the direwolf gave
him comfort. The girls do not even have that much, he thought. Their wolves might have kept them safe,
but Lady is dead and Nymeria's lost, they're all alone.
A north wind had begun to blow by the time the sun went down. Jon could hear it skirling against the
Wall and over the icy battlements as he went to the common hall for the evening meal. Hobb had cooked
up a venison stew, thick with barley, onions, and carrots. When he spooned an extra portion onto Jon's
plate and gave him the crusty heel of the bread, he knew what it meant. He knows. He looked around
the hall, saw heads turn quickly, eyes politely averted. They all know.
His friends rallied to him. "We asked the septon to light a candle for your father," Matthar told him. "It's
a lie, we all know it's a lie, even
Grenn knows it's a lie," Pyp chimed in. Grenn nodded, and Sam clasped Jon's hand, "You're my brother
now, so he's my father too," the fat boy said. "If you want to go out to the weirwoods and pray to the old
gods, I'll go with you."
The weirwoods were beyond the Wall, yet he knew Sam meant what he said. They are my brothers, he
thought. As much as Robb and Bran and Rickon . . .
And then he heard the laughter, sharp and cruel as a whip, and the voice of Ser Alliser Thorne. "Not
only a bastard, but a traitor's bastard," he was telling the men around him.
In the blink of an eye, Jon had vaulted onto the table, dagger in his hand. Pyp made a grab for him, but
he wrenched his leg away, and then he was sprinting down the table and kicking the bowl from Ser
Alliser's hand. Stew went flying everywhere, spattering the brothers. Thorne recoiled. People were
shouting, but Jon Snow did not hear them. He lunged at Ser Alliser's face with the dagger, slashing at
those cold onyx eyes, but Sam threw himself between them and before Jon could get around him, Pyp
was on his back clinging like a monkey, and Grenn was grabbing his arm while Toad wrenched the knife
from his fingers.
Later, much later, after they had marched him back to his sleeping cell, Mormont came down to see him,
raven on his shoulder. "I told you not to do anything stupid, boy," the Old Bear said. "Boy, " the bird
chorused. Mormont shook his head, disgusted. "And to think I had high hopes for you."
They took his knife and his sword and told him he was not to leave his cell until the high officers met to
decide what was to be done with him. And then they placed a guard outside his door to make certain he
obeyed. His friends were not allowed to see him, but the Old Bear did relent and permit him Ghost, so
he was not utterly alone.
"My father is no traitor," he told the direwolf when the rest had gone. Ghost looked at him in silence. Jon
slumped against the wall, hands around his knees, and stared at the candle on the table beside his narrow
bed. The flame flickered and swayed, the shadows moved around him, the room seemed to grow darker
and colder. I will not sleep tonight, Jon thought.
Yet he must have dozed. When he woke, his legs were stiff and cramped and the candle had long since


burned out. Ghost stood on his hind legs, scrabbling at the door. Jon was startled to see how tall he'd
grown. "Ghost, what is it?" he called softly. The direwolf turned his head and looked down at him, baring
his fangs in a silent snarl. Has he gone mad? Jon wondered. "It's me, Ghost," he murmured, trying not
to sound afraid. Yet he was trembling, violently. When had it gotten so cold?
Ghost backed away from the door. There were deep gouges where he'd raked the wood. Jon watched
him with mounting disquiet. "There's someone out there, isn't there?" he whispered. Crouching, the
direwolf crept backward, white fur rising on the back of his neck. The guard, he thought, they left a man
to guard my door, Ghost smells him through the door, that's all it is.
Slowly, Jon pushed himself to his feet. He was shivering uncontrollably, wishing he still had a sword.
Three quick steps brought him to the door. He grabbed the handle and pulled it inward. The creak of the
hinges almost made him jump.
His guard was sprawled bonelessly across the narrow steps, looking up at him. Looking up at him, even
though he was lying on his stomach. His head had been twisted completely around.
It can't be, Jon told himself. This is the Lord Commander's Tower, it's guarded day and night, this
couldn't happen, it's a dream, I'm having a nightmare.
Ghost slid past him, out the door. The wolf started up the steps, stopped, looked back at Jon. That was
when he heard it; the soft scrape of a boot on stone, the sound of a latch turning. The sounds came from
above. From the Lord Commander's chambers.
A nightmare this might be, yet it was no dream.
The guard's sword was in its sheath. Jon knelt and worked it free. The heft of steel in his fist made him
bolder. He moved up the steps, Ghost padding silently before him. Shadows lurked in every turn of the
stair. Jon crept up warily, probing any suspicious darkness with the point of his sword.
Suddenly he heard the shriek of Mormont's raven. "Corn, " the bird was screaming. "Corn, corn, corn,
corn, corn, corn. " Ghost bounded ahead, and Jon came scrambling after. The door to Mormont's solar
was wide open. The direwolf plunged through. Jon stopped in the doorway, blade in hand, giving his
eyes a moment to adjust. Heavy drapes had been pulled across the windows, and the darkness was
black as ink. "Who's there?" he called out.
Then he saw it, a shadow in the shadows, sliding toward the inner door that led to Mormont's sleeping
cell, a man-shape all in black, cloaked and hooded . . . but beneath the hood, its eyes shone with an icy
blue radiance . . .
Ghost leapt. Man and wolf went down together with neither scream nor snarl, rolling, smashing into a
chair, knocking over a table laden with papers. Mormont's raven was flapping overhead, screaming,
"Corn, corn, corn, corn. " Jon felt as blind as Maester Aemon. Keeping the wall to his back, he slid
toward the window and ripped down the curtain. Moonlight flooded the solar. He glimpsed black hands
buried in white fur, swollen dark fingers tightening around his direwolf's throat. Ghost was twisting and


snapping, legs flailing in the air, but he could not break free.
Jon had no time to be afraid. He threw himself forward, shouting, bringing down the longsword with all
his weight behind it. Steel sheared through sleeve and skin and bone, yet the sound was wrong somehow.
The smell that engulfed him was so queer and cold he almost gagged. He saw arm and hand on the floor,
black fingers wriggling in a pool of moonlight. Ghost wrenched free of the other hand and crept away,
red tongue lolling from his mouth.
The hooded man lifted his pale moon face, and Jon slashed at it without hesitation. The sword laid the
intruder open to the bone, taking off half his nose and opening a gash cheek to cheek under those eyes,
eyes, eyes like blue stars burning. Jon knew that face. Othor, he thought, reeling back. Gods, he's dead,
he's dead, I saw him dead.
He felt something scrabble at his ankle. Black fingers clawed at his calf. The arm was crawling up his leg,
ripping at wool and flesh. Shouting with revulsion, Jon pried the fingers off his leg with the point of his
sword and flipped the thing away. It lay writhing, fingers opening and closing.
The corpse lurched forward. There was no blood. One-armed, face cut near in half, it seemed to feel
nothing. Jon held the longsword before him. "Stay away!" he commanded, his voice gone shrill. "Corn, "
screamed the raven, "corn, corn. " The severed arm was wriggling out of its torn sleeve, a pale snake
with a black five-fingered head. Ghost pounced and got it between his teeth. Finger bones crunched. Jon
hacked at the corpse's neck, felt the steel bite deep and hard.
Dead Othor slammed into him, knocking him off his feet.
Jon's breath went out of him as the fallen table caught him between his shoulder blades. The sword,
where was the sword? He'd lost the damned sword! When he opened his mouth to scream, the wight
jammed its black corpse fingers into Jon's mouth. Gagging, he tried to shove it off, but the dead man was
too heavy. Its hand forced itself farther down his throat, icy cold, choking him. Its face was against his
own, filling the world. Frost covered its eyes, sparkling blue. Jon raked cold flesh with his nails and
kicked at the thing's legs. He tried to bite, tried to punch, tried to breathe . . .
And suddenly the corpse's weight was gone, its fingers ripped from his throat. It was all Jon could do to
roll over, retching and shaking.
Ghost had it again. He watched as the direwolf buried his teeth in the wight's gut and began to rip and
tear. He watched, only half conscious, for a long moment before he finally remembered to look for his
sword . . .
* * ' and saw Lord Mormont, naked and groggy from sleep, standing in the doorway with an oil lamp in
hand. Gnawed and fingerless, the arm thrashed on the floor, wriggling toward him.
Jon tried to shout, but his voice was gone. Staggering to his feet, he kicked the arm away and snatched
the lamp from the Old Bear's fingers. The flame flickered and almost died. "Bum!" the raven cawed.
"Bum, bum, bum!"
Spinning, Jon saw the drapes he'd ripped from the window. He flung the lamp into the puddled cloth
with both hands. Metal crunched, glass shattered, oil spewed, and the hangings went up in a great
whoosh of flame. The heat of it on his face was sweeter than any kiss Jon had ever known. "Ghost!" he


shouted.
The direwolf wrenched free and came to him as the wight struggled to rise, dark snakes spilling from the
great wound in its belly. Jon plunged his hand into the flames, grabbed a fistful of the burning drapes, and
whipped them at the dead man. Let it bum, he prayed as the cloth smothered the corpse, gods, please,
please, let it bum.
BRAN
The Karstarks came in on a cold windy morning, bringing three hundred horsemen and near two
thousand foot from their castle at Karhold. The steel points of their pikes winked in the pale sunlight as
the column approached. A man went before them, pounding out a slow, deep-throated marching rhythm
on a drum that was bigger than he was, boom, boom, boom.
Bran watched them come from a guard turret atop the outer wall, peering through Maester Luwin's
bronze far-eye while perched on Hodor's shoulders. Lord Rickard himself led them, his sons Harrion and
Eddard and Torrhen riding beside him beneath night-black banners emblazoned with the white sunburst
of their House. Old Nan said they had Stark blood in them, going back hundreds of years, but they did
not look like Starks to Bran. They were big men, and fierce, faces covered with thick beards, hair worn
loose past the shoulders. Their cloaks were made of skins, the pelts of bear and sea] and wolf.
They were the last, he knew. The other lords were already here, with their hosts. Bran yearned to ride
out among them, to see the winter houses full to bursting, the jostling crowds in the market square every
morning, the streets rutted and torn by wheel and hoof. But Robb had forbidden him to leave the castle.
"We have no men to spare to guard you," his brother had explained.
"I'll take Summer," Bran argued.
"Don't act the boy with me, Bran," Robb said. "You know better than that. Only two days ago one of
Lord Bolton's men knifed one of Lord Cerwyn's at the Smoking Log. Our lady mother would skin me for
a pelt if I let you put yourself at risk." He was using the voice of Robb the Lord when he said it; Bran
knew that meant there was no appeal.
It was because of what had happened in the wolfswood, he knew. The memory still gave him bad
dreams. He had been as helpless as a baby, no more able to defend himself than Rickon would have
been. Less, even . . . Rickon would have kicked them, at the least. It shamed him. He was only a few
years younger than Robb; if his brother was almost a man grown, so was he. He should have been able
to protect himself.
A year ago, before, he would have visited the town even if it meant climbing over the walls by himself. In
those days he could run down stairs, get on and off his pony by himself, and wield a wooden sword good
enough to knock Prince Tommen in the dirt. Now he could only watch, peering out through Maester
Luwin's lens tube. The maester had taught him all the banners: the mailed fist of the Glovers, silver on
scarlet; Lady Mormont's black bear; the hideous flayed man that went before Roose Bolton of the
Dreadfort; a bull moose for the Hornwoods; a battle-axe for the Cerwyns; three sentinel trees for the
Tallharts; and the fearsome sigil of House Umber, a roaring giant in shattered chains.


And soon enough he learned the faces too, when the lords and their sons and knights retainer came to
Winterfell to feast. Even the Great Hall was not large enough to seat all of them at once, so Robb hosted
each of the principal bannermen in turn. Bran was always given the place of honor at his brother's right
hand. Some of the lords bannermen gave him queer hard stares as he sat there, as if they wondered by
what right a green boy should be placed above them, and him a cripple too.
"How many is it now?" Bran asked Maester Luwin as Lord Karstark and his sons rode through the
gates in the outer wall.
"Twelve thousand men, or near enough as makes no matter."
"How many knights?"
"Few enough," the maester said with a touch of impatience. "To be a knight, you must stand your vigil in
a sept, and be anointed with the seven oils to consecrate your vows. In the north, only a few of the great
houses worship the Seven. The rest honor the old gods, and name no knights . . . but those lords and
their sons and sworn swords are no
less fierce or loyal or honorable. A man's worth is not marked by a ser before his name. As I have told
you a hundred times before."
"Still," said Bran, "how many knights?"
Maester Luwin sighed. "Three hundred, perhaps four . . . among three thousand armored lances who are
not knights."
"Lord Karstark is the last," Bran said thoughtfully. "Robb will feast him tonight."
"No doubt he will."
"How long before . . . before they go?"
"He must march soon, or not at all," Maester Luwin said. "The winter town is full to bursting, and this
army of his will eat the countryside clean if it camps here much longer. Others are waiting to join him all
along the kingsroad, barrow knights and crannogmen and the Lords Manderly and Flint. The fighting has
begun in the riverlands, and your brother has many leagues to go."
"I know." Bran felt as miserable as he sounded. He handed the bronze tube back to the maester, and
noticed how thin Luwin's hair had grown on top. He could see the pink of scalp showing through. It felt
queer to look down on him this way, when he'd spent his whole life looking up at him, but when you sat
on Hodor's back you looked down on everyone. "I don't want to watch anymore. Hodor, take me back
to the keep."
"Hodor," said Hodor.
Maester Luwin tucked the tube up his sleeve. "Bran, your lord brother will not have time to see you
now. He must greet Lord Karstark and his sons and make them welcome."
"I won't trouble Robb. I want to visit the godswood." He put his hand on Hodor's shoulder. "Hodor."


A series of chisel-cut handholds made a ladder in the granite of the tower's inner wall. Hodor hummed
tunelessly as he went down hand under hand, Bran bouncing against his back in the wicker seat that
Maester Luwin had fashioned for him. Luwin had gotten the idea from the baskets the women used to
carry firewood on their backs; after that it had been a simple matter of cutting legholes and attaching
some new straps to spread Bran's weight more evenly. It was not as good as riding Dancer, but there
were places Dancer could not go, and this did not shame Bran the way it did when Hodor carried him in
his arms like a baby. Hodor seemed to like it too, though with Hodor it was hard to tell. The only tricky
part was doors. Sometimes Hodor forgot that he had Bran on his back, and that could be painful when
he went through a door.
For near a fortnight there had been so many comings and goings
that Robb ordered both portcullises kept up and the drawbridge down between them, even in the dead
of night. A long column of armored lancers was crossing the moat between the walls when Bran emerged
from the tower; Karstark men, following their lords into the castle. They wore black iron halfhelms and
black woolen cloaks patterned with the white sunburst. Hodor trotted along beside them, smiling to
himself, his boots thudding against the wood of the drawbridge. The riders gave them queer looks as they
went by, and once Bran heard someone guffaw. He refused to let it trouble him. "Men will look at you,"
Maester Luwin had warned him the first time they had strapped the wicker basket around Hodor's chest.
"They will look, and they will talk, and some will mock you." Let them mock, Bran thought. No one
mocked him in his bedchamber, but he would not live his life in bed.
As they passed beneath the gatehouse portcullis, Bran put two fingers into his mouth and whistled.
Summer came loping across the yard. Suddenly the Karstark lancers were fighting for control, as their
horses rolled their eyes and whickered in dismay. One stallion reared, screaming, his rider cursing and
hanging on desperately. The scent of the direwolves sent horses into a frenzy of fear if they were not
accustomed to it, but they'd quiet soon enough once Summer was gone. "The godswood," Bran
reminded Hodor.
Even Winterfell itself was crowded. The yard rang to the sound of sword and axe, the rumble of
wagons, and the barking of dogs. The armory doors were open, and Bran glimpsed Mikken at his forge,
his hammer ringing as sweat dripped off his bare chest. Bran had never seen as many strangers in all his
years, not even when King Robert had come to visit Father.
He tried not to flinch as Hodor ducked through a low door. They walked down a long dim hallway,
Summer padding easily beside them. The wolf glanced up from time to time, eyes smoldering like liquid
gold. Bran would have liked to touch him, but he was riding too high for his hand to reach.
The godswood was an island of peace in the sea of chaos that Winterfell had become. Hodor made his
way through the dense stands of oak and ironwood and sentinels, to the still pool beside the heart tree.
He stopped under the gnarled limbs of the weirwood, humming. Bran reached up over his head and
pulled himself out of his seat, drawing the dead weight of his legs up through the holes in the wicker
basket. He hung for a moment, dangling, the dark red leaves brushing against his face, until Hodor lifted
him and lowered him to the smooth stone beside the water. "I want to be by myself for a while," he said.
"You go soak. Go to the pools."


"Hodor." Hodor stomped through the trees and vanished. Across the godswood, beneath the windows
of the Guest House, an underground hot spring fed three small ponds. Steam rose from the water day
and night, and the wall that loomed above was thick with moss. Hodor hated cold water, and would fight
like a treed wildcat when threatened with soap, but he would happily immerse himself in the hottest pool
and sit for hours, giving a loud burp to echo the spring whenever a bubble rose from the murky green
depths to break upon the surface.
Summer lapped at the water and settled down at Bran's side. He rubbed the wolf under the jaw, and for
a moment boy and beast both felt at peace. Bran had always liked the godswood, even before, but of
late he found himself drawn to it more and more. Even the heart tree no longer scared him the way it used
to. The deep red eyes carved into the pale trunk still watched him, yet somehow he took comfort from
that now. The gods were looking over him, he told himself; the old gods, gods of the Starks and the First
Men and the children of the forest, hisfather's gods. He felt safe in their sight, and the deep silence of the
trees helped him think. Bran had been thinking a lot since his fall; thinking, and dreaming, and talking with
the gods.
"Please make it so Robb won't go away," he prayed softly. He moved his hand through the cold water,
sending ripples across the pool. "Please make him stay. Or if he has to go, bring him home safe, with
Mother and Father and the girls. And make it . . . make it so Rickon understands."
His baby brother had been wild as a winter storm since he learned Robb was riding off to war, weeping
and angry by turns. He'd refused to eat, cried and screamed for most of a night, even punched Old Nan
when she tried to sing him to sleep, and the next day he'd vanished. Robb had set half the castle
searching for him, and when at last they'd found him down in the crypts, Rickon had slashed at them with
a rusted iron sword he'd snatched from a dead king's hand, and Shaggydog had come slavering out of
the darkness like a green-eyed demon. The wolf was near as wild as Rickon; he'd bitten Gage on the
arm and torn a chunk of flesh from Mikken's thigh. It had taken Robb himself and Grey Wind to bring
him to bay. Farlen had the black wolf chained up in the kennels now, and Rickon cried all the more for
being without him.
Maester Luwin counseled Robb to remain at Winterfell, and Bran pleaded with him too, for his own
sake as much as Rickon's, but his brother only shook his head stubbornly and said, "I don't want to go. I
have to."
It was only half a lie. Someone had to go, to hold the Neck and help the Tullys against the Lannisters,
Bran could understand that, but it did not have to be Robb. His brother might have given the command to
Hal Mollen or Theon Greyjoy, or to one of his lords bannermen. Maester Luwin urged him to do just
that, but Robb would not hear of it. "My lord father would never have sent men off to die while he
huddled like a craven behind the walls of Winterfell," he said, all Robb the Lord.
Robb seemed half a stranger to Bran now, transformed, a lord in truth, though he had not yet seen his
sixteenth name day. Even their father's bannermen seemed to sense it. Many tried to test him, each in his
own way. Roose Bolton and Robett Glover both demanded the honor of battle command, the first
brusquely, the second with a smile and a jest. Stout, grey-haired Maege Mormont, dressed in mail like a
man, told Robb bluntly that he was young enough to be her grandson, and had no business giving her
commands . . . but as it happened, she had a granddaughter she would be willing to have him marry.
Softspoken Lord Cerwyn had actually brought his daughter with him, a plump, homely maid of thirty
years who sat at her father's left hand and never lifted her eyes from her plate. Jovial Lord Hornwood
had no daughters, but he did bring gifts, a horse one day, a haunch of venison the next, a silver-chased


hunting horn the day after, and he asked nothing in return . . . nothing but a certain holdfast taken from his
grandfather, and hunting rights north of a certain ridge, and leave to dam the White Knife, if it please the
lord.
Robb answered each of them with cool courtesy, much as Father might have, and somehow he bent
them to his will.
And when Lord Umber, who was called the Greatjon by his men and stood as tall as Hodor and twice
as wide, threatened to take his forces home if he was placed behind the Hornwoods or the Cerwyns in
the order of march, Robb told him he was welcome to do so. "And when we are done with the
Lannisters," he promised, scratching Grey Wind behind the ear, "we will march back north, root you out
of your keep, and hang you for an oathbreaker." Cursing, the Greatjon flung a flagon of ale into the fire
and bellowed that Robb was so green he must piss grass. When Hallis Mollen moved to restrain him, he
knocked him to the floor, kicked over a table, and unsheathed the biggest, ugliest greatsword that Bran
had ever seen. All along the benches, his sons and brothers and sworn swords leapt to their feet,
grabbing for their steel.
Yet Robb only said a quiet word, and in a snarl and the blink of an eye Lord Umber was on his back,
his sword spinning on the floor three
feet away and his hand dripping blood where Grey Wind had bitten off two fingers. "My lord father
taught me that it was death to bare steel against your liege lord," Robb said, "but doubtless you only
meant to cut my meat." Bran's bowels went to water as the Greatjon struggled to rise, sucking at the red
stumps of fingers . . . but then, astonishingly, the huge man laughed. "Your meat," he roared, "is bloody
tough. "
And somehow after that the Greatjon became Robb's right hand, his staunchest champion, loudly telling
all and sundry that the boy lord was a Stark after all, and they'd damn well better bend their knees if they
didn't fancy having them chewed off.
Yet that very night, his brother came to Bran's bedchamber pale and shaken, after the fires had burned
low in the Great Hall. "I thought he was going to kill me," Robb confessed. "Did you see the way he
threw down Hal, like he was no bigger than Rickon? Gods, I was so scared. And the Greatjon's not the
worst of them, only the loudest. Lord Roose never says a word, he only looks at me, and all I can think
of is that room they have in the Dreadfort, where the Boltons hang the skins of their enemies."
"That's just one of Old Nan's stories," Bran said. A note of doubt crept into his voice. "Isn't it?"
"I don't know." He gave a weary shake of his head. "Lord Cerwyn means to take his daughter south
with us. To cook for him, he says. Theon is certain I'll find the girl in my bedroll one night. I wish . . . I
wish Father was here . . ."
That was the one thing they could agree on, Bran and Rickon and Robb the Lord; they all wished Father
was here. But Lord Eddard was a thousand leagues away, a captive in some dungeon, a hunted fugitive
running for his life, or even dead. No one seemed to know for certain; every traveler told a different tale,
each more terrifying than the last. The heads of Father's guardsmen were rotting on the walls of the Red
Keep, impaled on spikes. King Robert was dead at Father's hands. The Baratheons had laid siege to
King's Landing. Lord Eddard had fled south with the king's wicked brother Renly. Arya and Sansa had
been murdered by the Hound. Mother had killed Tyrion the Imp and hung his body from the walls of


Riverrun. Lord Tywin Lannister was marching on the Eyrie, burning and slaughtering as he went. One
winesodden taleteller even claimed that Rhaegar Targaryen had returned from the dead and was
marshaling a vast host of ancient heroes on Dragonstone to reclaim his father's throne.
When the raven came, bearing a letter marked with Father's own seal and written in Sansa's hand, the
cruel truth seemed no less incredible.
Bran would never forget the look on Robb's face as he stared at their sister's words. "She says
Father conspired at treason with the king's brothers," he read. "King Robert is dead, and Mother and I
are summoned to the Red Keep to swear fealty to Joffrey. She says we must be loyal, and when she
marries Jofftey she will plead with him to spare our lord father's life." His fingers closed into a fist,
crushing Sansa's letter between them. "And she says nothing of Arya, nothing, not so much as a word.
Damn her! What's wrong with the girl?"
Bran felt all cold inside. "She lost her wolf," he said, weakly, remembering the day when four of his
father's guardsmen had returned from the south with Lady's bones. Summer and Grey Wind and
Shaggydog had begun to howl before they crossed the drawbridge, in voices drawn and desolate.
Beneath the shadow of the First Keep was an ancient lichyard, its headstones spotted with pale lichen,
where the old Kings of Winter had laid their faithful servants. It was there they buried Lady, while her
brothers stalked between the graves like restless shadows. She had gone south, and only her bones had
returned.
Their grandfather, old Lord Rickard, had gone as well, with his son Brandon who was Father's brother,
and two hundred of his best men. None had ever returned. And Father had gone south, with Arya and
Sansa, and Jory and Hullen and Fat Tom and the rest, and later Mother and Ser Rodrik had gone, and
they hadn't come back either. And now Robb meant to go. Not to King's Landing and not to swear
fealty, but to Riverrun, with a sword in his hand. And if their lord father were truly a prisoner, that could
mean his death for a certainty. It frightened Bran more than he could say.
"If Robb has to go, watch over him," Bran entreated the old gods, as they watched him with the heart
tree's red eyes, "and watch over his men, Hal and Quent and the rest, and Lord Umber and Lady
Mormont and the other lords. And Theon too, I suppose. Watch them and keep them safe, if it please
you, gods. Help them defeat the Lannisters and save Father and bring them home."
A faint wind sighed through the godswood and the red leaves stirred and whispered. Summer bared his
teeth. "You hear them, boy?" a voice asked.
Bran lifted his head. Osha stood across the pool, beneath an ancient oak, her face shadowed by leaves.
Even in irons, the wildling moved quiet as a cat. Summer circled the pool, sniffed at her. The tall woman
flinched.
"Summer, to me," Bran called. The direwolf took one final sniff, spun, and bounded back. Bran
wrapped his arms around him. "What are you doing here?" He had not seen Osha since they'd taken her
captive in the wolfswood, though he knew she'd been set to working in the kitchens.
"They are my gods too," Osha said. "Beyond the Wall, they are the only gods." Her hair was growing


out, brown and shaggy. It made her look more womanly, that and the simple dress of brown roughspun
they'd given her when they took her mail and leather. "Gage lets me have my prayers from time to time,
when I feel the need, and I let him do as he likes under my skirt, when he feels the need. It's nothing to
me. I like the smell of flour on his hands, and he's gentler than Stiv." She gave an awkward bow. "I'll
leave you. There's pots that want scouring."
"No, stay," Bran commanded her. "Tell me what you meant, about hearing the gods."
Osha studied him. "You asked them and they're answering. Open your ears, listen, you'll hear."
Bran listened. "It's only the wind," he said after a moment, uncertain. "The leaves are rustling."
"Who do you think sends the wind, if not the gods?" She seated herself across the pool from him,
clinking faintly as she moved. Mikken had fixed iron manacles to her ankles, with a heavy chain between
them; she could walk, so long as she kept her strides small, but there was no way for her to run, or climb,
or mount a horse. "They see you, boy. They hear you talking. That rustling, that's them talking back."
:'What are they saying?"
'They're sad. Your lord brother will get no help from them, not where he's going. The old gods have no
power in the south. The weirwoods there were all cut down, thousands of years ago. How can they
watch your brother when they have no eyes?"
Bran had not thought of that. It frightened him. If even the gods could not help his brother, what hope
was there? Maybe Osha wasn't hearing them right. He cocked his head and tried to listen again. He
thought he could hear the sadness now, but nothing more than that.
The rustling grew louder. Bran heard muffled footfalls and a low humming, and Hodor came blundering
out of the trees, naked and smiling. "Hodor!"
"He must have heard our voices," Bran said. "Hodor, you forgot your clothes."
"Hodor," Hodor agreed. He was dripping wet from the neck down, steaming in the chill air. His body
was covered with brown hair, thick as a pelt. Between his legs, his manhood swung long and heavy.
Osha eyed him with a sour smile. "Now there's a big man," she said. "He has giant's blood in him, or I'm
the queen."
"Maester Luwin says there are no more giants. He says they're all dead, like the children of the forest.
All that's left of them are old bones in the earth that men turn up with plows from time to time."
"Let Maester Luwin ride beyond the Wall," Osha said. "He'll find giants then, or they'll find him. My
brother killed one. Ten foot tall she was, and stunted at that. They've been known to grow big as twelve
and thirteen feet. Fierce things they are too, all hair and teeth, and the wives have beards like their
husbands, so there's no telling them apart. The women take human men for lovers, and it's from them the
half bloods come. It goes harder on the women they catch. The men are so big they'll rip a maid apart
before they get her with child." She grinned at him. "But you don't know what I mean, do you, boy?"
"Yes I do," Bran insisted. He understood about mating; he had seen dogs in the yard, and watched a


stallion mount a mare. But talking about it made him uncomfortable. He looked at Hodor. "Go back and
bring your clothes, Hodor," he said. "Go dress."
"Hodor." He walked back the way he had come, ducking under a low-hanging tree limb.
He was awfully big, Bran thought as he watched him go. "Are there truly giants beyond the Wall?" he
asked Osha, uncertainly.
"Giants and worse than giants, Lordling. I tried to tell your brother when he asked his questions, him and
your maester and that smiley boy Greyjoy. The cold winds are rising, and men go out from their fires and
never come back . . . or if they do, they're not men no more, but only wights, with blue eyes and cold
black hands. Why do you think I run south with Stiv and Hali and the rest of them fools? Mance thinks
he'll fight, the brave sweet stubborn man, like the white walkers were no more than rangers, but what
does he know? He can call himself King-beyond-the-Wall all he likes, but he's still just another old black
crow who flew down from the Shadow Tower. He's never tasted winter. I was born up there, child, like
my mother and her mother before her and her mother before her, born of the Free Folk. We remember."
Osha stood, her chains rattling together. "I tried to tell your lordling brother. Only yesterday, when I saw
him in the yard. 'M'Iord Stark,' I called to him, respectful as you please, but he looked through me, and
that sweaty oaf Greatjon Umber shoves me out of the path. So be it. I'll wear my irons and hold my
tongue. A man who won't listen can't hear."
"Tell me. Robb will listen to me, I know he will."
"Will he now? We'll see. You tell him this, m1ord. You tell him he's bound on marching the wrong way.
It's north he should be taking his swords. North, not south. You hear me?"
Bran nodded. "I'll tell him."
But that night, when they feasted in the Great Hall, Robb was not with them. He took his meal in the
solar instead, with Lord Rickard and the Greatjon and the other lords bannermen, to make the final plans
for the long march to come. It was left to Bran to fill his place at the head of the table, and act the host to
Lord Karstark's sons and honored friends. They were already at their places when Hodor carried Bran
into the hall on his back, and knelt beside the high seat. Two of the serving men helped lift him from his
basket. Bran could feel the eyes of every stranger in the hall. It had grown quiet. "My lords," Hallis
Mollen announced, "Brandon Stark, of Winterfell."
"I welcome you to our fires," Bran said stiffly, "and offer you meat and mead in honor of our friendship."
Harrion Karstark, the oldest of Lord Rickard's sons, bowed, and his brothers after him, yet as they
settled back in their places he heard the younger two talking in low voices, over the clatter of wine cups.
11. . . sooner die than live like that," muttered one, his father's namesake Eddard, and his brother
Torrhen said likely the boy was broken inside as well as out, too craven to take his own life.
Broken, Bran thought bitterly as he clutched his knife. Is that what he was now? Bran the Broken? "I
don't want to be broken," he whispered fiercely to Maester Luwin, who'd been seated to his right. "I
want to be a knight."
"There are some who call my order the knights of the mind," Luwin replied. "You are a surpassing clever
boy when you work at it, Bran. Have you ever thought that you might wear a maester's chain? There is


no limit to what you might learn."
"I want to learn magic," Bran told him. "The crow promised that I would fly."
Maester Luwin sighed. "I can teach you history, healing, herblore. I can teach you the speech of ravens,
and how to build a castle, and the way a sailor steers his ship by the stars. I can teach you to measure the
days and mark the seasons, and at the Citadel in Oldtown they can teach you a thousand things more.
But, Bran, no man can teach you magic."
"The children could," Bran said. "The children of the forest." That reminded him of the promise he had
made to Osha in the godswood, so he told Luwin what she had said.
The maester listened politely. "The wildling woman could give Old Nan lessons in telling tales, I think,"
he said when Bran was done. "I will talk with her again if you like, but it would be best if you did not
trouble your brother with this folly. He has more than enough to
concern him without fretting over giants and dead men in the woods. It's the Lannisters who hold your
lord father, Bran, not the children of the forest." He put a gentle hand on Bran's arm. "Think on what I
said, child."
And two days later, as a red dawn broke across a windswept sky, Bran found himself in the yard
beneath the gatehouse, strapped atop Dancer as he said his farewells to his brother.
"You are the lord in Winterfell now," Robb told him. He was mounted on a shaggy grey stallion, his
shield hung from the horse's side; wood banded with iron, white and grey, and on it the snarling face of a
direwolf. His brother wore grey chainmail over bleached leathers, sword and dagger at his waist, a
fur-trimmed cloak across his shoulders. "You must take my place, as I took Father's, until we come
home."
"I know," Bran replied miserably. He had never felt so little or alone or scared. He did not know how to
be a lord.
"Listen to Maester Luwin's counsel, and take care of Rickon. Tell him that I'll be back as soon as the
fighting is done."
Rickon had refused to come down. He was up in his chamber, redeyed and defiant. "No!" he'd
screamed when Bran had asked if he didn't want to say farewell to Robb. "NO farewell!"
"I told him," Bran said. "He says no one ever comes back."
"He can't be a baby forever. He's a Stark, and near four." Robb sighed. "Well, Mother will be home
soon. And I'll bring back Father, I promise."
He wheeled his courser around and trotted away. Grey Wind followed, loping beside the warhorse, lean
and swift. Hallis Mollen went before them through the gate, carrying the rippling white banner of House
Stark atop a high standard of grey ash. Theon Greyjoy and the Greatjon fell in on either side of Robb,
and their knights formed up in a double column behind them, steel-tipped lances glinting in the sun.
Uncomfortably, he remembered Osha's words. He's marching the wrong way, he thought. For an instant


he wanted to gallop after him and shout a warning, but when Robb vanished beneath the portcullis, the
moment was gone.
Beyond the castle walls, a roar of sound went up. The foot soldiers and townsfolk were cheering Robb
as he rode past, Bran knew; cheering for Lord Stark, for the Lord of Winterfell on his great stallion, with
his cloak streaming and Grey Wind racing beside him. They would never cheer for him that way, he
realized with a dull ache. He might be the lord in Winterfell while his brother and father were gone, but he
was still Bran the Broken. He could not even get off his own horse, except to fall.
When the distant cheers had faded to silence and the yard was empty at last, Winterfell seemed deserted
and dead. Bran looked around at the faces of those who remained, women and children and old men . . .
and Hodor. The huge stableboy had a lost and frightened look to his face. "Hodor?" he said sadly.
"Hodor," Bran agreed, wondering what it meant.
DAENERYS
When he had taken his pleasure, Khal Drogo rose from their sleeping mats to tower above her. His skin
shone dark as bronze in the ruddy light from the brazier, the faint lines of old scars visible on his broad
chest. Ink-black hair, loose and unbound, cascaded over his shoulders and down his back, well past his
waist. His manhood glistened wetly. The khal's mouth twisted in a frown beneath the droop of his long
mustachio. "The stallion who mounts the world has no need of iron chairs."
Dany propped herself on an elbow to look up at him, so tall and magnificent. She loved his hair
especially. It had never been cut; he had never known defeat. "It was prophesied that the stallion will ride
to the ends of the earth," she said.
"The earth ends at the black salt sea," Drogo answered at once. He wet a cloth in a basin of warm water
to wipe the sweat and oil from his skin. "No horse can cross the poison water."
"In the Free Cities, there are ships by the thousand," Dany told him, as she had told him before.
"Wooden horses with a hundred legs, that fly across the sea on wings full of wind."
Khal Drogo did not want to hear it. "We will speak no more of wooden horses and iron chairs." He
dropped the cloth and began to dress. "This day I will go to the grass and hunt, woman wife," he
announced as he shrugged into a painted vest and buckled on a wide belt with heavy medallions of
silver, gold, and bronze.
"Yes, my sun-and-stars," Dany said. Drogo would take his bloodriders and ride in search of hrakkar,
the great white lion of the plains. If they returned triumphant, her lord husband's joy would be fierce, and
he might be willing to hear her out.


Savage beasts he did not fear, nor any man who had ever drawn breath, but the sea was a different
matter. To the Dothraki, water that a horse could not drink was something foul; the heaving grey-green
plains of the ocean filled them with superstitious loathing. Drogo was a bolder man than the other
horselords in half a hundred ways, she had found . . . but not in this. If only she could get him onto a ship
. . .
After the khal and his bloodriders had ridden off with their bows, Dany summoned her handmaids. Her
body felt so fat and ungainly now that she welcomed the help of their strong arms and deft hands,
whereas before she had often been uncomfortable with the way they fussed and fluttered about her. They
scrubbed her clean and dressed her in sandsilk, loose and flowing. As Doreah combed out her hair, she
sent Jhiqui to find Ser Jorah Mormont.
The knight came at once. He wore horsehair leggings and painted vest, like a rider. Coarse black hair
covered his thick chest and muscular arms. "My princess. How may I serve you?"
"You must talk to my lord husband," Dany said. "Drogo says the stallion who mounts the world will have
all the lands of the earth to rule, and no need to cross the poison water. He talks of leading his khalasar
east after Rhaego is born, to plunder the lands around the Jade Sea."
The knight looked thoughtful. "The khal has never seen the Seven Kingdoms," he said. "They are nothing
to him. If he thinks of them at all, no doubt he thinks of islands, a few small cities clinging to rocks in the
manner of Lorath or Lys, surrounded by stormy seas. The riches of the east must seem a more tempting
prospect."
"But he must ride west," Dany said, despairing. "Please, help me make him understand." She had never
seen the Seven Kingdoms either, no more than Drogo, yet she felt as though she knew them from all the
tales her brother had told her. Viserys had promised her a thousand times that he would take her back
one day, but he was dead now and his promises had died with him.
"The Dothraki do things in their own time, for their own reasons," the knight answered. "Have patience,
Princess. Do not make your brother's mistake. We will go home, I promise you."
Home? The word made her feel sad. Ser Jorah had his Bear Island,
but what was home to her? A few tales, names recited as solemnly as the words of a prayer, the fading
memory of a red door ... was Vaes Dothrak to be her home forever? When she looked at the crones of
the dosh khaleen, was she looking at her future?
Ser Jorah must have seen the sadness on her face. "A great caravan arrived during the night, Khaleesi.
Four hundred horses, from Pentos by way of Norvos and Qohor, under the command of Merchant
Captain Byan Votyris. Illyrio may have sent a letter. Would you care to visit the Western Market?"
Dany stirred. "Yes," she said. "I would like that." The markets came alive when a caravan had come in.
You could never tell what treasures the traders might bring this time, and it would be good to hear men
speaking Valyrian again, as they did in the Free Cities. "Irri, have them prepare a litter.,,
"I shall tell your khas," Ser Jorah said, withdrawing.


If Khal Drogo had been with her, Dany would have ridden her silver. Among the Dothraki, mothers
stayed on horseback almost up to the moment of birth, and she did not want to seem weak in her
husband's eyes. But with the khal off hunting, it was pleasant to lie back on soft cushions and be carried
across Vaes Dothrak, with red silk curtains to shield her from the sun. Ser Jorah saddled up and rode
beside her, with the four young men of her khas and her handmaids.
The day was warm and cloudless, the sky a deep blue. When the wind blew, she could smell the rich
scents of grass and earth. As her litter passed beneath the stolen monuments, she went from sunlight to
shadow and back again. Dany swayed along, studying the faces of dead heroes and forgotten kings. She
wondered if the gods of burned cities could still answer prayers.
If I were not the blood of the dragon, she thought wistfully, this could be my home. She was khaleesi,
she had a strong man and a swift horse, handmaids to serve her, warriors to keep her safe, an honored
place in the dosh khaleen awaiting her when she grew old . . . and in her womb grew a son who would
one day bestride the world. That should be enough for any woman . . . but not for the dragon. With
Viserys gone, Daenerys was the last, the very last. She was the seed of kings and conquerors, and so too
the child inside her. She must not forget.
The Western Market was a great square of beaten earth surrounded by warrens of mud-baked brick,
animal pens, whitewashed drinking halls. Hummocks rose from the ground like the backs of great
subterranean beasts breaking the surface, yawning black mouths leading down to cool and cavernous
storerooms below. The interior of the
square was a maze of stalls and crookback aisles, shaded by awnings of woven grass.
A hundred merchants and traders were unloading their goods and setting up in stalls when they arrived,
yet even so the great market seemed hushed and deserted compared to the teeming bazaars that Dany
remembered from Pentos and the other Free Cities. The caravans made their way to Vaes Dothrak from
east and west not so much to sell to the Dothraki as to trade with each other, Ser Jorah had explained.
The riders let them come and go unmolested, so long as they observed the peace of the sacred city, did
not profane the Mother of Mountains or the Womb of the World, and honored the crones of the dosh
khaleen with the traditional gifts of salt, silver, and seed. The Dothraki did not truly comprehend this
business of buying and selling.
Dany liked the strangeness of the Eastern Market too, with all its queer sights and sounds and smells.
She often spent her mornings there, nibbling tree eggs, locust pie, and green noodles, listening to the high
ululating voices of the spellsingers, gaping at manticores in silver cages and immense grey elephants and
the striped black-and-white horses of the Jogos Nhai. She enjoyed watching all the people too: dark
solemn Asshai'i and tall pale Qartheen, the bright-eyed men of Yi Ti in monkey-tail hats, warrior maids
from Bayasabhad, Shamyriana, and Kayakayanaya with iron rings in their nipples and rubies in their
cheeks, even the dour and frightening Shadow Men, who covered their arms and legs and chests with
tattoos and hid their faces behind masks. The Eastern Market was a place of wonder and magic for
Dany.
But the Western Market smelled of home.
As Irri and Jhiqui helped her from her litter, she sniffed, and recognized the sharp odors of garlic and
pepper, scents that reminded Dany of days long gone in the alleys of Tyrosh and Myr and brought a fond
smile to her face. Under that she smelled the heady sweet perfumes of Lys. She saw slaves carrying bolts


of intricate Myrish lace and fine wools in a dozen rich colors. Caravan guards wandered among the aisles
in copper helmets and knee-length tunics of quilted yellow cotton, empty scabbards swinging from their
woven leather belts. Behind one stall an armorer displayed steel breastplates worked with gold and silver
in ornate patterns, and helms hammered in the shapes of fanciful beasts. Next to him was a pretty young
woman selling Lannisport goldwork, rings and brooches and torcs and exquisitely wrought medallions
suitable for belting. A huge eunuch guarded her stall, mute and hairless, dressed in sweat-stained velvets
and scowling at anyone who came close. Across the aisle, a fat cloth trader from Yi Ti was
haggling with a Pentoshi over the price of some green dye, the monkey tail on his hat swaying back and
forth as he shook his head.
"When I was a little girl, I loved to play in the bazaar," Dany told Ser Jorah as they wandered down the
shady aisle between the stalls. "It was so alive there, all the people shouting and laughing, so many
wonderful things to look at . . . though we seldom had enough coin to buy anything . . . well, except for a
sausage now and again, or honeyfingers . . . do they have honeyfingers in the Seven Kingdoms, the kind
they bake in Tyrosh?"
"Cakes, are they? I could not say, Princess." The knight bowed. "If you would pardon me for a time, I
will seek out the captain and see if he has letters for us."
"Very well. I'll help you find him."
"There is no need for you to trouble yourself." Ser Jorah glanced away impatiently. "Enjoy the market. I
will rejoin you when my business is concluded."
Cutious, Dany thought as she watched him stride off through the throngs. She didn't see why she should
not go with him. Perhaps Ser Jorah meant to find a woman after he met with the merchant captain.
Whores frequently traveled with the caravans, she knew, and some men were queerly shy about their
couplings. She gave a shrug. "Come," she told the others.
Her handmaids trailed along as Dany resumed her stroll through the market. "Oh, look," she exclaimed
to Doreah, "those are the kind of sausages I meant." She pointed to a stall where a wizened little woman
was grilling meat and onions on a hot firestone. "They make them with lots of garlic and hot peppers."
Delighted with her discovery, Dany insisted the others join her for a sausage. Her handmaids wolfed
theirs down giggling and grinning, though the men of her khas sniffed at the grilled meat suspiciously.
"They taste different than I remember," Dany said after her first few bites.
"In Pentos, I make them with pork," the old woman said, "but all my pigs died on the Dothraki sea.
These are made of horsemeat, Khaleesi, but I spice them the same."
"Oh." Dany felt disappointed, but Quaro liked his sausage so well he decided to have another one, and
Rakharo had to outdo him and eat three more, belching loudly. Dany giggled.
"You have not laughed since your brother the Khal Rhaggat was crowned by Drogo," said Irri. "It is
good to see, Khaleesi."
Dany smiled shyly. It was sweet to laugh. She felt half a girl again.
They wandered for half the morning. She saw a beautiful feathered cloak from the Summer Isles, and


took it for a gift. In return, she gave
the merchant a silver medallion from her belt. That was how it was done among the Dothraki. A
birdseller taught a green-and-red parrot to say her name, and Dany laughed again, yet still refused to take
him. What would she do with a green-and-red parrot in a khalasar? She did take a dozen flasks of
scented oils, the perfumes of her childhood; she had only to close her eyes and sniff them and she could
see the big house with the red door once more. When Doreah looked longingly at a fertility charm at a
magician's booth, Dany took that too and gave it to the handmaid, thinking that now she should find
something for Irri and Jhiqui as well.
Turning a corner, they came upon a wine merchant offering thimble-sized cups of his wares to the
passersby. "Sweet reds," he cried in fluent Dothraki, "I have sweet reds, from Lys and Volantis and the
Arbor. Whites from Lys, Tyroshi pear brandy, firewine, pepperwine, the pale green nectars of Myr.
Smokeberry browns and Andalish sours, I have them, I have them." He was a small man, slender and
handsome, his flaxen hair curled and perfumed after the fashion of Lys. When Dany paused before his
stall, he bowed low. "A taste for the khaleesi? I have a sweet red from Dorne, my lady, it sings of plums
and cherries and rich dark oak. A cask, a cup, a swallow? One taste, and you will name your child after
me."
Dany smiled. "My son has his name, but I will try your summerwine," she said in Valyrian, Valyrian as
they spoke it in the Free Cities. The words felt strange on her tongue, after so long. "Just a taste, if you
would be so kind."
The merchant must have taken her for Dothraki, with her clothes and her oiled hair and sun-browned
skin. When she spoke, he gaped at her in astonishment. "My lady, you are . . . Tyroshi? Can it be so?"
"My speech may be Tyroshi, and my garb Dothraki, but I am of Westeros, of the Sunset Kingdoms,"
Dany told him.
Doreah stepped up beside her. "You have the honor to address Daenerys of the House Targaryen,
Daenerys Stormborn, khaleesi of the riding men and princess of the Seven Kingdoms."
The wine merchant dropped to his knees. "Princess," he said, bowing his head.
"Rise," Dany commanded him. "I would still like to taste that summerwine you spoke of."
The man bounded to his feet. "That? Dornish swill. It is not worthy of a princess. I have a dry red from
the Arbor, crisp and delectable. Please, let me give you a cask."
Khal Drogo's visits to the Free Cities had given him a taste for good
wine, and Dany knew that such a noble vintage would please him. "You honor me, ser," she murmured
sweetly.
"The honor is mine." The merchant rummaged about in the back of his stall and produced a small oaken
cask. Burned into the wood was a cluster of grapes. "The Redwyne sigil," he said, pointing, "for the
Arbor. There is no finer drink."


"Khal Drogo and I will share it together. Aggo, take this back to my litter, if you'd be so kind." The
wineseller beamed as the Dothraki hefted the cask.
She did not realize that Ser Jorah had returned until she heard the knight say, "No. " His voice was
strange, brusque. "Aggo, put down that cask."
Aggo looked at Dany. She gave a hesitant nod. "Ser Jorah, is something wrong?"
"I have a thirst. Open it, wineseller."
The merchant frowned. "The wine is for the khaleesi, not for the likes of you, ser."
Ser Jorah moved closer to the stall. "If you don't open it, I'll crack it open with your head." He carried
no weapons here in the sacred city, save his hands-yet his hands were enough, big, hard, dangerous, his
knuckles covered with coarse dark hairs. The wineseller hesitated a moment, then took up his hammer
and knocked the plug from the cask.
"Pour," Ser Jorah commanded. The four young warriors of Dany's khas arrayed themselves behind him,
frowning, watching with their dark, almond-shaped eyes.
"It would be a crime to drink this rich a wine without letting it breathe." The wineseller had not put his
hammer down.
Jhogo reached for the whip coiled at his belt, but Dany stopped him with a light touch on the arm. "Do
as Ser Jorah says," she said. People were stopping to watch.
The man gave her a quick, sullen glance. "As the princess commands." He had to set aside his hammer
to lift the cask. He filled two thimble-sized tasting cups, pouring so deftly he did not spill a drop.
Ser Jorah lifted a cup and sniffed at the wine, frowning.
"Sweet, isn't it?" the wineseller said, smiling. "Can you smell the fruit, ser? The perfume of the Arbor.
Taste it, my lord, and tell me it isn't the finest, richest wine that's ever touched your tongue."
Ser Jorah offered him the cup. "You taste it first."
"Me?" The man laughed. "I am not worthy of this vintage, my lord. And it's a poor wine merchant who
drinks up his own wares." His smile was amiable, yet she could see the sheen of sweat on his brow.
"You will drink," Dany said, cold as ice. "Empty the cup, or I will tell them to hold you down while Ser
Jorah pours the whole cask down your throat."
The wineseller shrugged, reached for the cup . . . and grabbed the cask instead, flinging it at her with
both hands. Ser Jorah bulled into her, knocking her out of the way. The cask bounced off his shoulder
and smashed open on the ground. Dany stumbled and lost her feet. "No, " she screamed, thrusting her
hands out to break her fall . . . and Doreah caught her by the arm and wrenched her backward, so she
landed on her legs and not her belly.


The trader vaulted over the stall, darting between Aggo and Rakharo. Quaro reached for an arakh that
was not there as the blond man slammed him aside. He raced down the aisle. Dany heard the snap of
Jhogo's whip, saw the leather lick out and coil around the wineseller's leg. The man sprawled face first in
the dirt.
A dozen caravan guards had come running. With them was the master himself, Merchant Captain Byan
Votyris, a diminutive Norvoshi with skin like old leather and a bristling blue mustachio that swept up to
his ears. He seemed to know what had happened without a word being spoken. "Take this one away to
await the pleasure of the khal," he commanded, gesturing at the man on the ground. Two guards hauled
the wineseller to his feet. "His goods I gift to you as well, Princess," the merchant captain went on. "Small
token of regret, that one of mine would do this thing."
Doreah and Jhiqui helped Dany back to her feet. The poisoned wine was leaking from the broken cask
into the dirt. "How did you know?" she asked Ser Jorah, trembling. "How?"
"I did not know, Khaleesi, not until the man refused to drink, but once I read Magister Illyrio's letter, I
feared." His dark eyes swept over the faces of the strangers in the market. "Come. Best not to talk of it
here."
Dany was near tears as they carried her back. The taste in her mouth was one she had known before:
fear. For years she had lived in terror of Viserys, afraid of waking the dragon. This was even worse. It
was not just for herself that she feared now, but for her baby. He must have sensed her fright, for he
moved restlessly inside her. Dany stroked the swell of her belly gently, wishing she could reach him,
touch him, soothe him. "You are the blood of the dragon, little one," she whispered as her litter swayed
along, curtains drawn tight. "You are the blood of the dragon, and the dragon does not fear."
Under the hollow hummock of earth that was her home in Vaes Dothrak, Dany ordered them to leave
her-all but Ser Jorah. "Tell
me," she commanded as she lowered herself onto her cushions. "Was it the Usurper?"
"Yes." The knight drew out a folded parchment. "A letter to Viserys, from Magister Illyrio. Robert
Baratheon offers lands and lordships for your death, or your brother's."
"My brother?" Her sob was half a laugh. "He does not know yet, does he? The Usurper owes Drogo a
lordship." This time her laugh was half a sob. She hugged herself protectively. "And me, you said. Only
me?"
"You and the child," Ser Jorah said, grim.
"No. He cannot have my son." She would not weep, she decided. She would not shiver with fear. The
Usurper has woken the dragon now, she told herself . . . and her eyes went to the dragon's eggs resting
in their nest of dark velvet. The shifting lamplight linmed their stony scales, and shimmering motes of jade
and scarlet and gold swam in the air around them, like courtiers around a king.
Was it madness that seized her then, born of fear? Or some strange wisdom buried in her blood? Dany
could not have said. She heard her own voice saying, "Ser Jorah, light the brazier."
"Khaleesi?" The knight looked at her strangely. "It is so hot. Are you certain?"


She had never been so certain. "Yes. I . . . I have a chill. Light the brazier."
He bowed. "As you command."
When the coals were afire, Dany sent Ser Jorah from her. She had to be alone to do what she must do.
This is madness, she told herself as she lifted the black-and-scarlet egg from the velvet. It will only crack
and bum, and it's so beautiful, Ser Jorah will call me a fool if I ruin it, and yet, and yet . . .
Cradling the egg with both hands, she carried it to the fire and pushed it down amongst the burning
coals. The black scales seemed to glow as they drank the heat. Flames licked against the stone with small
red tongues. Dany placed the other two eggs beside the black one in the fire. As she stepped back from
the brazier, the breath trembled in her throat.
She watched until the coals had turned to ashes. Drifting sparks floated up and out of the smokehole.
Heat shimmered in waves around the dragon's eggs. And that was all.
Your brother Rhaegar was the last dragon, Ser Jorah had said. Dany gazed at her eggs sadly. What had
she expected? A thousand thousand years ago they had been alive, but now they were only pretty rocks.
They could not make a dragon. A dragon was air and fire. Living flesh, not dead stone.
The brazier was cold again by the time Khal Drogo returned. Cohollo was leading a packhorse behind
him, with the carcass of a great white lion slung across its back. Above, the stars were coming out. The
khal laughed as he swung down off his stallion and showed her the scars on his leg where the hrakkar
had raked him through his leggings. "I shall make you a cloak of its skin, moon of my life," he swore.
When Dany told him what had happened at the market, all laughter stopped, and Khal Drogo grew very
quiet.
"This poisoner was the first," Ser Jorah Mormont warned him, "but he will not be the last. Men will risk
much for a lordship."
Drogo was silent for a time. Finally he said, "This seller of poisons ran from the moon of my life. Better
he should run after her. So he will. Jhogo, Jorah the Andal, to each of you I say, choose any horse you
wish from my herds, and it is yours. Any horse save my red and the silver that was my bride gift to the
moon of my life. I make this gift to you for what you did.
"And to Rhaego son of Drogo, the stallion who will mount the world, to him I also pledge a gift. To him I
will give this iron chair his mother's father sat in. I will give him Seven Kingdoms. 1, Drogo, khal, will do
this thing." His voice rose, and he lifted his fist to the sky. "I will take my khalasar west to where the
world ends, and ride the wooden horses across the black salt water as no khal has done before. I will kill
the men in the iron suits and tear down their stone houses. I will rape their women, take their children as
slaves, and bring their broken gods back to Vaes Dothrak to bow down beneath the Mother of
Mountains. This I vow, 1, Drogo son of Bharbo. This I swear before the Mother of Mountains, as the
stars look down in witness."
His khalasar left Vaes Dothrak two days later, striking south and west across the plains. Khal Drogo led
them on his great red stallion, with Daenerys beside him on her silver. The wineseller hurried behind them,


naked, on foot, chained at throat and wrists. His chains were fastened to the halter of Dany's silver. As
she rode, he ran after her, barefoot and stumbling. No harm would come to him . . . so long as he kept
up.
CATELYN
It was too far to make out the banners clearly, but even through the drifting fog she could see that they
were white, with a dark
smudge in their center that could only be the direwolf of Stark, grey upon its icy field. When she saw it
with her own eyes, Catelyn reined up her horse and bowed her head in thanks. The gods were good.
She was not too late.
"They await our coming, my lady," Ser Wylis Manderly said, "as my lord father swore they would."
"Let us not keep them waiting any longer, ser." Ser Brynden Tully put the spurs to his horse and trotted
briskly toward the banners. Catelyn rode beside him.
Ser Wylis and his brother Ser Wendel followed, leading their levies, near fifteen hundred men: some
twenty-odd knights and as many squires, two hundred mounted lances, swordsmen, and freeriders, and
the rest foot, armed with spears, pikes and tridents. Lord Wyman had remained behind to see to the
defenses of White Harbor. A man of near sixty years, he had grown too stout to sit a horse. "If I had
thought to see war again in my lifetime, I should have eaten a few less eels," he'd told Catelyn when he
met her ship, slapping his massive belly with both hands. His fingers were fat as sausages. "My boys will
see you safe to your son, though, have no fear."
His "boys" were both older than Catelyn, and she might have
wished that they did not take after their father quite so closely. Ser Wylis was only a few eels short of
not being able to mount his own horse; she pitied the poor animal. Ser Wendel, the younger boy, would
have been the fattest man she'd ever known, had she only neglected to meet his father and brother. Wylis
was quiet and formal, Wendel loud and boisterous; both had ostentatious walrus mustaches and heads as
bare as a baby's bottom; neither seemed to own a single garment that was not spotted with food stains.
Yet she liked them well enough; they had gotten her to Robb, as their father had vowed, and nothing else
mattered.
She was pleased to see that her son had sent eyes out, even to the east. The Lannisters would come
from the south when they came, but it was good that Robb was being careful. My son is leading a host to
war, she thought, still only half believing it. She was desperately afraid for him, and for Winterfell, yet she
could not deny feeling a certain pride as well. A year ago he had been a boy. What was he now? she
wondered.
Outriders spied the Manderly banners-the white merman with trident in hand, rising from a blue-green
sea-and hailed them warmly. They were led to a spot of high ground dry enough for a camp. Ser Wylis
called a halt there, and remained behind with his men to see the fires laid and the horses tended, while his
brother Wendel rode on with Catelyn and her uncle to present their father's respects to their liege lord.


The ground under their horses' hooves was soft and wet. It fell away slowly beneath them as they rode
past smoky peat fires, lines of horses, and wagons heavy-laden with hardbread and salt beef. On a stony
outcrop of land higher than the surrounding country, they passed a lord's pavilion with walls of heavy
sailcloth. Catelyn recognized the banner, the bull moose of the Hornwoods, brown on its dark orange
field.
Just beyond, through the mists, she glimpsed the walls and towers of Moat Cailin . . . or what remained
of them. Immense blocks of black basalt, each as large as a crofter's cottage, lay scattered and tumbled
like a child's wooden blocks, half-sunk in the soft boggy soil. Nothing else remained of a curtain wall that
had once stood as high as Winterfell's. The wooden keep was gone entirely, rotted away a thousand
years past, with not so much as a timber to mark where it had stood. All that was left of the great
stronghold of the First Men were three towers . . . three where there had once been twenty, if the
taletellers could be believed.
The Gatehouse Tower looked sound enough, and even boasted a
A GAME, OF THRONLS 525
few feet of standing wall to either side of it. The Drunkard's Tower, off in the bog where the south and
west walls had once met, leaned like a man about to spew a bellyful of wine into the gutter. And the tall,
slender Children's Tower, where legend said the children of the forest had once called upon their
nameless gods to send the hammer of the waters, had lost half its crown. It looked as if some great beast
had taken a bite out of the crenellations along the tower top, and spit the rubble across the bog. All three
towers were green with moss. A tree was growing out between the stones on the north side of the
Gatehouse Tower, its gnarled limbs festooned with ropy white blankets of ghostskin.
"Gods have mercy," Ser Brynden exclaimed when he saw what lay before them. "This is Moat Cailin?
It's no more than a-"
"-death trap," Catelyn finished. "I know how it looks, Uncle. I thought the same the first time I saw it, but
Ned assured me that this ruin is more formidable than it seems. The three surviving towers command the
causeway from all sides, and any enemy must pass between them. The bogs here are impenetrable, full of
quicksands and suckholes and teeming with snakes. To assault any of the towers, an army would need to
wade through waist-deep black muck, cross a moat full of lizard-lions, and scale walls slimy with moss,
all the while exposing themselves to fire from archers in the other towers." She gave her uncle a grim
smile. "And when night falls, there are said to be ghosts, cold vengeful spirits of the north who hunger for
southron blood."
Ser Brynden chuckled. "Remind me not to linger here. Last I looked, I was southron myself."
Standards had been raised atop all three towers. The Karstark sunburst hung from the Drunkard's
Tower, beneath the direwolf; on the Children's Tower it was the Greatjon's giant in shattered chains. But
on the Gatehouse Tower, the Stark banner flew alone. That was where Robb had made his seat. Catelyn
made for it, with Ser Brynden and Ser Wendel behind her, their horses stepping slowly down the
log-andplank road that had been laid across the green-and-black fields of mud.
She found her son surrounded by his father's lords bannermen, in a drafty hall with a peat fire smoking in
a black hearth. He was seated at a massive stone table, a pile of maps and papers in front of him, talking
intently with Roose Bolton and the Greatjon. At first he did not notice her . . . but his wolf did. The great
grey beast was lying near the fire, but when Catelyn entered he lifted his head, and his golden eyes met
hers. The lords fell silent one by one, and Robb looked up at the


sudden quiet and saw her. "Mother?" he said, his voice thick with emotion.
Catelyn wanted to run to him, to kiss his sweet brow, to wrap him in her arms and hold him so tightly
that he would never come to harm . * . but here in front of his lords, she dared not. He was playing a
man's part now, and she would not take that away from him. So she held herself at the far end of the
basalt slab they were using for a table. The direwolf got to his feet and padded across the room to where
she stood. It seemed bigger than a wolf ought to be. "You've grown a beard," she said to Robb, while
Grey Wind sniffed her hand.
He rubbed his stubbled jaw, suddenly awkward. "Yes." His chin hairs were redder than the ones on his
head.
"I like it." Catelyn stroked the wolfs head, gently. "It makes you look like my brother Edmure." Grey
Wind nipped at her fingers, playful, and trotted back to his place by the fire.
Ser Helman Tallhart was the first to follow the direwolf across the room to pay his respects, kneeling
before her and pressing his brow to her hand. "Lady Catelyn," he said, "you are fair as ever, a welcome
sight in troubled times." The Glovers followed, Galbart and Robett, and Greatjon Umber, and the rest,
one by one. Theon Greyjoy was the last. "I had not looked to see you here, my lady," he said as he knelt.
"I had not thought to be here," Catelyn said, "until I came ashore at White Harbor, and Lord Wyman
told me that Robb had called the banners. You know his son, Ser Wendel." Wendel Manderly stepped
forward and bowed as low as his girth would allow. "And my uncle, Ser Brynden Tully, who has left my
sister's service for mine."
"The Blackfish," Robb said. "Thank you for joining us, ser. We need men of your courage. And you, Ser
Wendel, I am glad to have you here. Is Ser Rodrik with you as well, Mother? I've missed him."
"Ser Rodrik is on his way north from White Harbor. I have named him castellan and commanded him to
hold Winterfell till our return. Maester Luwin is a wise counsellor, but unskilled in the arts of war."
"Have no fear on that count, Lady Stark," the Greatjon told her in his bass rumble. "Winterfell is safe.
We'll shove our swords up Tywin Lannister's bunghole soon enough, begging your pardons, and then it's
on to the Red Keep to free Ned."
"My lady, a question, as it please you." Roose Bolton, Lord of the Dreadfort, had a small voice, yet
when he spoke larger men quieted to listen. His eyes were curiously pale, almost without color, and his
look disturbing. "It is said that you hold Lord Tywin's dwarf son as captive. Have you brought him to us?
I vow, we should make good use of such a hostage."
"I did hold Tyrion Lannister, but no longer," Catelyn was forced to admit. A chorus of consternation
greeted the news. "I was no more pleased than you, my lords. The gods saw fit to free him, with some
help from my fool of a sister." She ought not to be so open in her contempt, she knew, but her parting
from the Eyrie had not been pleasant. She had offered to take Lord Robert with her, to foster him at
Winterfell for a few years. The company of other boys would do him good, she had dared to suggest.
Lysa's rage had been frightening to behold. "Sister or no," she had replied, "if you try to steal my son, you


will leave by the Moon Door." After that there was no more to be said.
The lords were anxious to question her further, but Catelyn raised a hand. "No doubt we will have time
for all this later, but my journey has fatigued me. I would speak with my son alone. I know you will
forgive me, my lords." She gave them no choice; led by the ever-obliging Lord Hornwood, the
bannermen bowed and took their leave. "And you, Theon," she added when Greyjoy lingered. He smiled
and left them.
There was ale and cheese on the table. Catelyn tilled a horn, sat, sipped, and studied her son. He
seemed taller than when she'd left, and the wisps of beard did make him look older. "Edmure was sixteen
when he grew his first whiskers."
"I will be sixteen soon enough," Robb said.
"And you are fifteen now. Fifteen, and leading a host to battle. Can you understand why I might fear,
Robb?"
His look grew stubborn. "There was no one else."
"No one?" she said. "Pray, who were those men I saw here a moment ago? Roose Bolton, Rickard
Karstark, Galbart and Robett Glover, the Greatjon, Heiman Tallhart . . . you might have given the
command to any of them. Gods be good, you might even have sent Theon, though he would not be my
choice."
"They are not Starks," he said.
"They are men, Robb, seasoned in battle. You were fighting with wooden swords less than a year past."
She saw anger in his eyes at that, but it was gone as quick as it came, and suddenly he was a boy again.
"I know," he said, abashed. "Are you . . . are you sending me back to Winterfell?"
Catelyn sighed. "I should. You ought never have left. Yet I dare not, not now. You have come too far.
Someday these lords will look to you as their liege. If I pack you off now, like a child being sent to bed
without his supper, they will remember, and laugh about it in their cups. The day will come when you
need them to respect you, even fear you a little. Laughter is poison to fear. I will not do that to you, much
as I might wish to keep you safe."
"You have my thanks, Mother," he said, his relief obvious beneath the formality.
She reached across his table and touched his hair. "You are my firstborn, Robb. I have only to look at
you to remember the day you came into the world, red-faced and squalling."
He rose, clearly uncomfortable with her touch, and walked to the hearth. Grey Wind rubbed his head
against his leg. "You know . . . about Father?"
"Yes." The reports of Robert's sudden death and Ned's fall had frightened Catelyn more than she could
say, but she would not let her son see her fear. "Lord Manderly told me when I landed at White Harbor.
Have you had any word of your sisters?"


"There was a letter," Robb said, scratching his direwolf under the jaw. "One for you as well, but it came
to Winterfell with mine." He went to the table, rummaged among some maps and papers, and returned
with a crumpled parchment. "This is the one she wrote me, I never thought to bring yours."
Something in Robb's tone troubled her. She smoothed out the paper and read. Concern gave way to
disbelief, then to anger, and lastly to fear. "This is Cersei's letter, not your sister's," she said when she was
done. "The real message is in what Sansa does not say. All this about how kindly and gently the
Lannisters are treating her . . . I know the sound of a threat, even whispered. They have Sansa hostage,
and they mean to keep her."
"There's no mention of Arya," Robb pointed out, miserable.
"No." Catelyn did not want to think what that might mean, not now, not here.
"I had hoped . . . if you still held the Imp, a trade of hostages . . ." He took Sansa's letter and crumpled it
in his fist, and she could tell from the way he did it that it was not the first time. "Is there word from the
Eyrie? I wrote to Aunt Lysa, asking help. Has she called Lord Arryn's banners, do you know? Will the
knights of the Vale come join us?"
"Only one," she said, "the best of them, my uncle . . . but Brynden Blackfish was a Tully first. My sister is
not about to stir beyond her Bloody Gate."
Robb took it hard. "Mother, what are we going to do? I brought this whole army together, eighteen
thousand men, but I don't . . . I'm not certain . . ." He looked to her, his eyes shining, the proud young
lord melted away in an instant, and quick as that he was a child again, a fifteen-year-old boy looking to
his mother for answers.
It would not do.
"What are you so afraid of, Robb?" she asked gently.
"I . . ." He turned his head away, to hide the first tear. "If we march ... even if we win ... the Lannisters
hold Sansa, and Father. They'll kill them, won't they?"
"They want us to think so."
"You mean they're lying?"
"I do not know, Robb. What I do know is that you have no choice. If you go to King's Landing and
swear fealty, you will never be allowed to leave. If you turn your tail and retreat to Winterfell, your lords
will lose all respect for you. Some may even go over to the Lannisters. Then the queen, with that much
less to fear, can do as she likes with her prisoners. Our best hope, our only true hope, is that you can
defeat the foe in the field. If you should chance to take Lord Tywin or the Kingslayer captive, why then a
trade might very well be possible, but that is not the heart of it. So long as you have power enough that
they must fear you, Ned and your sister should be safe. Cersei is wise enough to know that she may need
them to make her peace, should the fighting go against her."
"What if the fighting doesn't go against her?" Robb asked. "What if it goes against us?"


Catelyn took his hand. "Robb, I will not soften the truth for you. If you lose, there is no hope for any of
us. They say there is naught but stone at the heart of Casterly Rock. Remember the fate of Rhaegar's
children."
She saw the fear in his young eyes then, but there was a strength as well. "Then I will not lose," he
vowed.
"Tell me what you know of the fighting in the riverlands," she said. She had to learn if he was truly ready.
"Less than a fortnight past, they fought a battle in the hills below the Golden Tooth," Robb said. "Uncle
Edmure had sent Lord Vance and Lord Piper to hold the pass, but the Kingslayer descended on them
and put them to flight. Lord Vance was slain. The last word we had was that Lord Piper was falling back
to join your brother and his other bannermen at Riverrun, with Jaime Lannister on his heels. That's not the
worst of it, though. All the time they were battling in the pass, Lord Tywin was bringing a second
Lannister army around from the south. It's said to be even larger than Jaime's host.
"Father must have known that, because he sent out some men to oppose them, under the king's own
banner. He gave the command to some southron lordling, Lord Erik or Derik or something like that, but
Ser Raymun Darry rode with him, and the letter said there were other knights as well, and a force of
Father's own guardsmen. Only it was a
trap. Lord Derik had no sooner crossed the Red Fork than the Lannisters fell upon him, the king's
banner be damned, and Gregor Clegane took them in the rear as they tried to pull back across the
Mummer's Ford. This Lord Derik and a few others may have escaped, no one is certain, but Ser
Raymun was killed, and most of our men from Winterfell. Lord Tywin has closed off the kingsroad, it's
said, and now he's marching north toward Harrenhal, burning as he goes."
Grim and grimmer, thought Catelyn. It was worse than she'd imagined. "You mean to meet him here?"
she asked.
"If he comes so far, but no one thinks he will," Robb said. "I've sent word to Howland Reed, Father's
old friend at Greywater Watch. If the Lannisters come up the Neck, the crannogmen will bleed them
every step of the way, but Galbart Glover says Lord Tywin is too smart for that, and Roose Bolton
agrees. He'll stay close to the Trident, they believe, taking the castles of the river lords one by one, until
Riverrun stands alone. We need to march south to meet him."
The very idea of it chilled Catelyn to the bone. What chance would a fifteen-year-old boy have against
seasoned battle commanders like Jaime and Tywin Lannister? "Is that wise? You are strongly placed
here. It's said that the old Kings in the North could stand at Moat Cailin and throw back hosts ten times
the size of their own."
"Yes, but our food and supplies are running low, and this is not land we can live off easily. We've been
waiting for Lord Manderly, but now that his sons have joined us, we need to march."
She was hearing the lords bannermen speaking with her son's voice, she realized. Over the years, she
had hosted many of them at Winterfell, and been welcomed with Ned to their own hearths and tables.
She knew what sorts of men they were, each one. She wondered if Robb did.
And yet there was sense in what they said. This host her son had assembled was not a standing army


such as the Free Cities were accustomed to maintain, nor a force of guardsmen paid in coin. Most of
them were smallfolk: crofters, fieldhands, fishermen, sheepherders, the sons of innkeeps and traders and
tanners, leavened with a smattering of sellswords and freeriders hungry for plunder. When their lords
called, they came . . . but not forever. "Marching is all very well," she said to her son, "but where, and to
what purpose? What do you mean to do?"
Robb hesitated. "The Greatjon thinks we should take the battle to Lord Tywin and surprise him," he
said, "but the Glovers and the Karstarks feel we'd be wiser to go around his army and join up with Uncle
Ser Edmure against the Kingslayer." He ran his fingers through
his shaggy mane of auburn hair, looking unhappy. "Though by the time we reach Riverrun ... I'm not
certain . . ."
"Be certain," Catelyn told her son, "or go home and take up that wooden sword again. You cannot
afford to seem indecisive in front of men like Roose Bolton and Rickard Karstark. Make no mistake,
Robb-these are your bannermen, not your friends. You named yourself battle commander. Command."
Her son looked at her, startled, as if he could not credit what he was hearing. "As you say, Mother."
"I'll ask you again. What do you mean to do?"
Robb drew a map across the table, a ragged piece of old leather covered with lines of faded paint. One
end curled up from being rolled; he weighed it down with his dagger. "Both plans have virtues, but . . .
look, if we try to swing around Lord Tywin's host, we take the risk of being caught between him and the
l(ingslayer, and if we attack him . . . by all reports, he has more men than I do, and a lot more armored
horse. The Greatjon says that won't matter if we catch him with his breeches down, but it seems to me
that a man who has fought as many battles as Tywin Lannister won't be so easily surprised."
"Good," she said. She could hear echoes of Ned in his voice, as he sat there, puzzling over the map.
"Tell me more."
"I'd leave a small force here to hold Moat Cailin, archers mostly, and march the rest down the
causeway," he said, "but once we're below the Neck, I'd split our host in two. The foot can continue
down the kingsroad, while our horsemen cross the Green Fork at the Twins." He pointed. "When Lord
Tywin gets word that we've come south, he'll march north to engage our main host, leaving our riders free
to hurry down the west bank to Riverrun." Robb sat back, not quite daring to smile, but pleased with
himself and hungry for her praise.
Catelyn frowned down at the map. "You'd put a river between the two parts of your army."
"And between Jaime and Lord Tywin," he said eagerly. The smile came at last. "There's no crossing on
the Green Fork above the ruby ford, where Robert won his crown. Not until the Twins, all the way up
here, and Lord Frey controls that bridge. He's your father's bannerman, isn't that so?"
The Late Lord Frey, Catelyn thought. "He is," she admitted, "but my father has never trusted him. Nor
should you."
"I won't," Robb promised. "What do you think?"


She was impressed despite herself. He looks like a Tully, she thought, yet he's still his father's son, and
Ned taught him well. "Which force would you command?"
"The horse," he answered at once. Again like his father; Ned would always take the more dangerous
task himself.
"And the other?"
"The Greatjon is always saying that we should smash Lord Tywin. I thought I'd give him the honor."
It was his first misstep, but how to make him see it without wounding his fledgling confidence? "Your
father once told me that the Greatjon was as fearless as any man he had ever known."
Robb grinned. "Grey Wind ate two of his fingers, and he laughed about it. So you agree, then?"
"Your father is not fearless," Catelyn pointed out. "He is brave, but that is very different."
Her son considered that for a moment. "The eastern host will be all that stands between Lord Tywin and
Winterfell," he said thoughtfully. "Well, them and whatever few bowmen I leave here at the Moat. So I
don't want someone fearless, do IT'
"No. You want cold cunning, I should think, not courage."
"Roose Bolton," Robb said at once. "That man scares me."
"Then let us pray he will scare Tywin Lannister as well."
Robb nodded and rolled up the map. "I'll give the commands, and assemble an escort to take you home
to Winterfell."
Catelyn had fought to keep herself strong, for Ned's sake and for this stubborn brave son of theirs. She
had put despair and fear aside, as if they were garments she did not choose to wear . . . but now she saw
that she had donned them after all.
"I am not going to Winterfell," she heard herself say, surprised at the sudden rush of tears that blurred
her vision. "My father may be dying behind the walls of Riverrun. My brother is surrounded by foes. I
must go to them."
TYRION
Chella daughter of Cheyk of the Black Ears had gone ahead to scout, and it was she who brought back
word of the army at the crossroads. "By their fires I call them twenty thousand strong," she said. "Their
banners are red, with a golden lion."
"Your father?" Bronn asked.
"Or my brother Jaime," Tyrion said. "We shall know soon enough." He surveyed his ragged band of


brigands: near three hundred Stone Crows, Moon Brothers, Black Ears, and Burned Men, and those just
the seed of the army he hoped to grow. Gunthor son of Gurn was raising the other clans even now. He
wondered what his lord father would make of them in their skins and bits of stolen steel. If truth be told,
he did not know what to make of them himself. Was he their commander or their captive? Most of the
time, it seemed to be a little of both. "It might be best if I rode down alone," he suggested.
"Best for Tyrion son of Tywin," said Ulf, who spoke for the Moon Brothers.
Shagga glowered, a fearsome sight to see. "Shagga son of Dolf likes this not. Shagga will go with the
boyman, and if the boyman lies, Shagga will chop off his manhood-"
,,-and feed it to the goats, yes," Tyrion said wearily. "Shagga, I give you my word as a Lannister, I will
return."
"Why should we trust your word?" Chella was a small hard woman,
flat as a boy, and no fool. "Lowland lords have lied to the clans before."
"You wound me, Chella," Tyrion said. "Here I thought we had become such friends. But as you will.
You shall ride with me, and Shagga and Conn for the Stone Crows, Ulf for the Moon Brothers, and
Timett son of Timett for the Burned Men." The clansmen exchanged wary looks as he named them. "The
rest shall wait here until I send for you. Try not to kill and maim each other while I'm gone."
He put his heels to his horse and trotted off, giving them no choice but to follow or be left behind. Either
was fine with him, so long as they did not sit down to talk for a day and a night. That was the trouble with
the clans; they had an absurd notion that every man's voice should be heard in council, so they argued
about everything, endlessly. Even their women were allowed to speak. Small wonder that it had been
hundreds of years since they last threatened the Vale with anything beyond an occasional raid. Tyrion
meant to change that.
Brorm rode with him. Behind them-after a quick bit of grumbling-the five clansmen followed on their
undersize garrons, scrawny things that looked like ponies and scrambled up rock walls like goats.
The Stone Crows rode together, and Chella and Ulf stayed close as well, as the Moon Brothers and
Black Ears had strong bonds between them. Timett son of Timett rode alone. Every clan in the
Mountains of the Moon feared the Burned Men, who mortified their flesh with fire to prove their courage
and (the others said) roasted babies at their feasts. And even the other Burned Men feared Timett, who
had put out his own left eye with a white-hot knife when he reached the age of manhood. Tyrion gathered
that it was more customary for a boy to burn off a nipple, a finger, or (if he was truly brave, or truly mad)
an ear. Timett's fellow Burned Men were so awed by his choice of an eye that they promptly named him
a red hand, which seemed to be some sort of a war chief.
"I wonder what their king burned off," Tyrion said to Bronn when he heard the tale. Grinning, the
sellsword had tugged at his crotch . . . but even Brorm kept a respectful tongue around Timett. If a man
was mad enough to put out his own eye, he was unlikely to be gentle to his enemies.
Distant watchers peered down from towers of unmortared stone as the party descended through the
foothills, and once Tyrion saw a raven take wing. Where the high road twisted between two rocky
outcrops, they came to the first strong point. A low earthen wall four feet high closed off the road, and a


dozen crossbowmen manned the heights.
A GAME OF TFIRONES 535
Tyrion halted his followers out of range and rode to the wall alone. "Who commands here?" he shouted
up.
The captain was quick to appear, and even quicker to give them an escort when he recognized his lord's
son. They trotted past blackened fields and burned holdfasts, down to the riverlands and the Green Fork
of the Trident. Tyrion saw no bodies, but the air was full of ravens and carrion crows; there had been
fighting here, and recently.
Half a league from the crossroads, a barricade of sharpened stakes had been erected, manned by
pikemen and archers. Behind the line, the camp spread out to the far distance. Thin fingers of smoke rose
from hundreds of cookfires, mailed men sat under trees and honed their blades, and familiar banners
fluttered from staffs thrust into the muddy ground.
A party of mounted horsemen rode forward to challenge them as they approached the stakes. The
knight who led them wore silver armor inlaid with amethysts and a striped purple-and-silver cloak. His
shield bore a unicorn sigil, and a spiral horn two feet long jutted up from the brow of his horsehead helm.
Tyrion reined up to greet him. "Ser Flement."
Ser Flement Brax lifted his visor. "Tyrion," he said in astonishment. "My lord, we all feared you dead, or
. . ." He looked at the clansmen uncertainly. "These . . . companions of yours . . ."
"Bosom friends and loyal retainers," Tyrion said. "Where will I find my lord father?"
"He has taken the inn at the crossroads for his quarters."
Tyrion laughed. The inn at the crossroads! Perhaps the gods were just after all. "I will see him at once."
"As you say, my lord." Ser Flement wheeled his horse about and shouted commands. Three rows of
stakes were pulled from the ground to make a hole in the line. Tyrion led his party through.
Lord Tywin's camp spread over leagues. Chella's estimate of twenty thousand men could not be far
wrong. The common men camped out in the open, but the knights had thrown up tents, and some of the
high lords had erected pavilions as large as houses. Tyrion spied the red ox of the Presters, Lord
Crakehall's brindled boar, the burning tree of Marbrand, the badger of Lydden. Knights called out to him
as he cantered past, and men-at-arms gaped at the clansmen in open astonishment.
Shagga was gaping back; beyond a certainty, he had never seen so many men, horses, and weapons in
all his days. The rest of the mountain brigands did a better job of guarding their faces, but Tyrion had no
doubts that they were full as much in awe. Better and better. The more
impressed they were with the power of the Lannisters, the easier they would be to command.
The inn and its stables were much as he remembered, though little more than tumbled stones and
blackened foundations remained where the rest of the village had stood. A gibbet had been erected in the
yard, and the body that swung there was covered with ravens. At Tyrion's approach they took to the air,


squawking and flapping their black wings. He dismounted and glanced up at what remained of the
corpse. The birds had eaten her lips and eyes and most of her cheeks, baring her stained red teeth in a
hideous smile. "A room, a meal, and a flagon of wine, that was all I asked," he reminded her with a sigh
of reproach.
Boys emerged hesitantly from the stables to see to their horses. Shagga did not want to give his up. "The
lad won't steal your mare," Tyrion assured him. "He only wants to give her some oats and water and
brush out her coat." Shagga's coat could have used a good brushing too, but it would have been less than
tactful to mention it. "You have my word, the horse will not be harmed."
Glaring, Shagga let go his grip on the reins. "This is the horse of Shagga son of Dolf," he roared at the
stableboy.
"If he doesn't give her back, chop off his manhood and feed it to the goats," Tyrion promised. "Provided
you can find some."
A pair of house guards in crimson cloaks and lion-crested helms stood under the inn's sign, on either side
of the door. Tyrion recognized their captain. "My father?"
"In the common room, m'lord."
"My men will want meat and mead," Tyrion told him. "See that they get it." He entered the inn, and there
was Father.
Tywin Lannister, Lord of Casterly Rock and Warden of the West, was in his middle fifties, yet hard as a
man of twenty. Even seated, he was tall, with long legs, broad shoulders, a flat stomach. His thin arms
were corded with muscle. When his once-thick golden hair had begun to recede, he had commanded his
barber to shave his head; Lord Tywin did not believe in half measures. He razored his lip and chin as
well, but kept his side-whiskers, two great thickets of wiry golden hair that covered most of his cheeks
from ear to jaw. His eyes were a pale green, flecked with gold. A fool more foolish than most had once
jested that even Lord Tywin's shit was flecked with gold. Some said the man was still alive, deep in the
bowels of Casterly Rock.
Ser Kevan Lannister, his father's only surviving brother, was sharing a flagon of ale with Lord Tywin
when Tyrion entered the common room. His uncle was portly and balding, with a close-cropped yellow
beard that followed the line of his massive jaw. Ser Kevan saw him first. "Tyrion," he said in surprise.
"Uncle," Tyrion said, bowing. "And my lord father. What a pleasure to find you here."
Lord Tywin did not stir from his chair, but he did give his dwarf son a long, searching look. "I see that
the rumors of your demise were unfounded."
"Sorry to disappoint you, Father," Tyrion said. "No need to leap up and embrace me, I wouldn't want
you to strain yourself." He crossed the room to their table, acutely conscious of the way his stunted legs
made him waddle with every step. Whenever his father's eyes were on him, he became uncomfortably
aware of all his deformities and shortcomings. "Kind of you to go to war for me," he said as he climbed
into a chair and helped himself to a cup of his father's ale.


"By my lights, it was you who started this," Lord Tywin replied. "Your brother Jaime would never have
meekly submitted to capture at the hands of a woman."
"That's one way we differ, Jaime and 1. He's taller as well, you may have noticed."
His father ignored the sally. "The honor of our House was at stake. I had no choice but to ride. No man
sheds Lannister blood with impunity.,,
"Hear Me Roar, " Tyrion said, grinning. The Lannister words. "Truth be told, none of my blood was
actually shed, although it was a close thing once or twice. Morrec and Jyck were killed."
"I suppose you will be wanting some new men."
"Don't trouble yourself, Father, I've acquired a few of my own." He tried a swallow of the ale. It was
brown and yeasty, so thick you could almost chew it. Very fine, in truth. A pity his father had hanged the
innkeep. "How is your war going?"
His uncle answered. "Well enough, for the nonce. Ser Edmure had scattered small troops of men along
his borders to stop our raiding, and your lord father and I were able to destroy most of them piecemeal
before they could regroup."
"Your brother has been covering himself with glory," his father said. "He smashed the Lords Vance and
Piper at the Golden Tooth, and met the massed power of the Tullys under the walls of Riverrun. The
lords of the Trident have been put to rout. Ser Edmure Tully was taken captive, with many of his knights
and bannermen. Lord Blackwood led a few survivors back to Riverrun, where Jaime has them under
siege. The rest fled to their own strongholds."
"Your father and I have been marching on each in turn," Ser Kevan
said. "With Lord Blackwood gone, Raventree fell at once, and Lady Whent yielded Harrenhal for want
of men to defend it. Ser Gregor burnt out the Pipers and the Brackens . . ."
"Leaving you unopposed?" Tyrion said.
"Not wholly," Ser Kevan said. "The Mallisters still hold Seagard and Walder Frey is marshaling his levies
at the Twins."
"No matter," Lord Tywin said. "Frey only takes the field when the scent of victory is in the air, and all he
smells now is ruin. And Jason Mallister lacks the strength to fight alone. Once Jaime takes Riverrun, they
will both be quick enough to bend the knee. Unless the Starks and the Arryns come forth to oppose us,
this war is good as won."
"I would not fret overmuch about the Arryns if I were you," Tyrion said. "The Starks are another matter.
Lord Eddard-"
"-is our hostage," his father said. "He will lead no armies while he rots in a dungeon under the Red
Keep."
"No," Ser Kevan agreed, "but his son has called the banners and sits at Moat Cailin with a strong host


around him."
"No sword is strong until it's been tempered," Lord Tywin declared. "The Stark boy is a child. No doubt
he likes the sound of warhorns well enough, and the sight of his banners fluttering in the wind, but in the
end it comes down to butcher's work. I doubt he has the stomach for it."
Things had gotten interesting while he'd been away, Tyrion reflected. "And what is our fearless monarch
doing whilst all this 'butcher's work' is being done?" he wondered. "How has my lovely and persuasive
sister gotten Robert to agree to the imprisonment of his dear friend Ned?"
"Robert Baratheon is dead," his father told him. "Your nephew reigns in King's Landing."
That did take Tyrion aback. "My sister, you mean." He took another gulp of ale. The realm would be a
much different place with Cersei ruling in place of her husband.
"If you have a mind to make yourself of use, I will give you a command," his father said. "Marq Piper
and Karyl Vance are loose in our rear, raiding our lands across the Red Fork."
Tyrion made a tsking sound. "The gall of them, fighting back. Ordinarily I'd be glad to punish such
rudeness, Father, but the truth is, I have pressing business elsewhere."
"Do you?" Lord Tywin did not seem awed. "We also have a pair of Ned Stark's afterthoughts making a
nuisance of themselves by harassing my foraging parties. Beric Dondarrion, some young lordling with
delusions of valor. He has that fat jape of a priest with him, the one
who likes to set his sword on fire. Do you think you might be able to deal with them as you scamper off?
Without making too much a botch of it?"
Tyrion wiped his mouth with the back of his hand and smiled. "Father, it warms my heart to think that
you might entrust me with . . . what, twenty men? Fifty? Are you sure you can spare so many? Well, no
matter. If I should come across Thoros and Lord Beric, I shall spank them both." He climbed down from
his chair and waddled to the sideboard, where a wheel of veined white cheese sat surrounded by fruit.
"First, though, I have some promises of my own to keep," he said as he sliced off a wedge. "I shall
require three thousand helms and as many hauberks, plus swords, pikes, steel spearheads, maces,
battleaxes, gauntlets, gorgets, greaves, breastplates, wagons to carry all this-"
The door behind him opened with a crash, so violently that Tyrion almost dropped his cheese. Ser
Kevan leapt up swearing as the captain of the guard went flying across the room to smash against the
hearth. As he tumbled down into the cold ashes, his lion helm askew, Shagga snapped the man's sword
in two over a knee thick as a tree trunk, threw down the pieces, and lumbered into the common room.
He was preceded by his stench, riper than the cheese and overpowering in the closed space. "Little
redcape," he snarled, "when next you bare steel on Shagga son of Dolf, I will chop off your manhood and
roast it in the fire."
"What, no goats?" Tyrion said, taking a bite of cheese.
The other clansmen followed Shagga into the common room, Bronn with them. The sellsword gave
Tyrion a rueful shrug.


"Who might you be?" Lord Tywin asked, cool as snow.
"They followed me home, Father," Tyrion explained. "May I keep them? They don't eat much."
No one was smiling. "By what right do you savages intrude on our councils?" demanded Ser Kevan.
"Savages, lowlander?" Conn might have been handsome if you washed him. "We are free men, and free
men by rights sit on all war councils."
"Which one is the lion lord?" Chella asked.
"They are both old men," announced Timett son of Timett, who had yet to see his twentieth year.
Ser Kevan's hand went to his sword hilt, but his brother placed two fingers on his wrist and held him
fast. Lord Tywin seemed unperturbed. "Tyrion, have you forgotten your courtesies? Kindly acquaint us
with our . . . honored guests."
Tyrion licked his fingers. "With pleasure," he said. "The fair maid is Chella daughter of Cheyk of the
Black Ears."
"I'm no maid," Chella protested. "My sons have taken fifty ears among them."
"May they take fifty more." Tyrion waddled away from her. "This is Conn son of Coratt. Shagga son of
Dolf is the one who looks like Casterly Rock with hair. They are Stone Crows. Here is Ulf son of Umar
of the Moon Brothers, and here Timett son of Timett, a red hand of the Burned Men. And this is Bronn,
a sellsword of no particular allegiance. He has already changed sides twice in the short time I've known
him, you and he ought to get on famously, Father." To Bronn and the clansmen he said, "May I present
my lord father, Tywin son of Tytos of House Lannister, Lord of Casterly Rock, Warden of the West,
Shield of Lannisport, and once and future Hand of the King."
Lord Tywin rose, dignified and correct. "Even in the west, we know the prowess of the warrior clans of
the Mountains of the Moon. What brings you down from your strongholds, my lords?"
"Horses," said Shagga.
"A promise of silk and steel," said Timett son of Timett.
Tyrion was about to tell his lord father how he proposed to reduce the Vale of Arryn to a smoking
wasteland, but he was never given the chance. The door banged open again. The messenger gave
Tyrion's clansmen a quick, queer look as he dropped to one knee before Lord Tywin. "My lord," he
said, "Ser Addam bid me tell you that the Stark host is moving down the causeway."
Lord Tywin Lannister did not smile. Lord Tywin never smiled, but Tyrion had learned to read his father's
pleasure all the same, and it was there on his face. "So the wolfling is leaving his den to play among the
lions," he said in a voice of quiet satisfaction. "Splendid. Return to Ser Addam and tell him to fall back.
He is not to engage the northerners until we arrive, but I want him to harass their flanks and draw them
farther south."
"It will be as you command." The rider took his leave.


"We are well situated here," Ser Kevan pointed out. "Close to the ford and ringed by pits and spikes. If
they are coming south, I say let them come, and break themselves against us."
"The boy may hang back or lose his courage when he sees our numbers," Lord Tywin replied. "The
sooner the Starks are broken, the sooner I shall be free to deal with Stannis Baratheon. Tell the
drummers to beat assembly, and send word to Jaime that I am marching against Robb Stark."
"As you will," Ser Kevan said.
Tyrion watched with a grim fascination as his lord father turned next to the half-wild clansmen. "It is said
that the men of the mountain clans are warriors without fear."
"It is said truly," Conn of the Stone Crows answered.
"And the women," Chella added.
"Ride with me against my enemies, and you shall have all my son promised you, and more," Lord Tywin
told them.
"Would you pay us with our own coin?" Ulf son of Umar said. "Why should we need the father's
promise, when we have the son's?"
"I said nothing of need," Lord Tywin replied. "My words were courtesy, nothing more. You need not
join us. The men of the winterlands are made of iron and ice, and even my boldest knights fear to face
them."
Oh, deftly done, Tyrion thought, smiling crookedly.
"The Burned Men fear nothing. Timett son of Timett will ride with the lions."
"Wherever the Burned Men go, the Stone Crows have been there first," Conn declared hotly. "We ride
as well."
"Shagga son of Dolf will chop off their manhoods and feed them to the crows."
"We will ride with you, lion lord," Chella daughter of Cheyk agreed, "but only if your halfman son goes
with us. He has bought his breath with promises. Until we hold the steel he has pledged us, his life is
ours."
Lord Tywin turned his gold-flecked eyes on his son.
"Joy," Tyrion said with a resigned smile.
SANSA
The walls of the throne room had been stripped bare, the hunting tapestries that King Robert loved


taken down and stacked in the corner in an untidy heap.
Ser Mandon Moore went to take his place under the throne beside two of his fellows of the Kingsguard.
Sansa hovered by the door, for once unguarded. The queen had given her freedom of the castle as a
reward for being good, yet even so, she was escorted everywhere she went. "Honor guards for my
daughter-to-be," the queen called them, but they did not make Sansa feel honored.
"Freedom, of the castle" meant that she could go wherever she chose within the Red Keep so long as
she promised not to go beyond the walls, a promise Sansa had been more than willing to give. She
couldn't have gone beyond the walls anyway. The gates were watched day and night by Janos Slynt's
gold cloaks, and Lannister house guards were always about as well. Besides, even if she could leave the
castle, where would she go? It was enough that she could walk in the yard, pick flowers in Myrcella's
garden, and visit the sept to pray for her father. Sometimes she prayed in the godswood as well, since the
Starks kept the old gods.
This was the first court session of Joffrey's reign, so Sansa looked about nervously. A line of Lannister
house guards stood beneath the western windows, a line of gold-cloaked City Watchmen beneath the
east. Of smallfolk and commoners, she saw no sign, but under the gallery a cluster of lords great and
small milled restlessly. There were no more than twenty, where a hundred had been accustomed to wait
upon King Robert.
Sansa slipped in among them, murmuring greetings as she worked her way toward the front. She
recognized black-skinned Jalabhar Xho, gloomy Ser Aron Santagar, the Redwyne twins Horror and
Slobber . . . only none of them seemed to recognize her. Or if they did, they shied away as if she had the
grey plague. Sickly Lord Gyles covered his face at her approach and feigned a fit of coughing, and when
funny drunken Ser Dontos started to hail her, Ser Balon Swann whispered in his ear and he turned away.
And so many others were missing. Where had the rest of them gone? Sansa wondered. Vainly, she
searched for friendly faces. Not one of them would meet her eyes. It was as if she had become a ghost,
dead before her time.
Grand Maester Pycelle was seated alone at the council table, seemingly asleep, his hands clasped
together atop his beard. She saw Lord Varys hurry into the hall, his feet making no sound. A moment
later Lord Baelish entered through the tall doors in the rear, smiling. He chatted amiably with Ser Balon
and Ser Dontos as he made his way to the front. Butterflies fluttered nervously in Sansa's stomach. I
shouldn't be afraid, she told herself. I have nothing to be afraid of, it will all come out well, Joff loves me
and the queen does too, she said so.
A herald's voice rang out. "All hail His Grace, Joffrey of the Houses Baratheon and Lannister, the First
of his Name, King of the Andals, the Rhoynar, and the First Men, and Lord of the Seven Kingdoms. All
hail his lady mother, Cersei of House Lannister, Queen Regent, Light of the West, and Protector of the
Realm."
Ser Barristan Selmy, resplendent in white plate, led them in. Ser Arys Oakheart escorted the queen,
while Ser Boros Blount walked beside Joffrey, so six of the Kingsguard were now in the hall, all the
White Swords save Jaime Lannister alone. Her prince-no, her king now!-took the steps of the Iron
Throne two at a time, while his mother was seated with the council. Joff wore plush black velvets slashed
with crimson, a shimmering cloth-of-gold cape with a high collar, and on his head a golden crown crusted


with rubies and black diamonds.
When Joffrey turned to look out over the hall, his eye caught Sansa's. He smiled, seated himself, and
spoke. "It is a king's duty to punish the disloyal and reward those who are true. Grand Maester Pycelle, I
command you to read my decrees."
Pycelle pushed himself to his feet. He was clad in a magnificent robe of thick red velvet, with an ermine
collar and shiny gold fastenings. From a drooping sleeve, heavy with gilded scrollwork, he drew a
parchment, unrolled it, and began to read a long list of names, commanding each in the name of king and
council to present themselves and swear their fealty to Joffrey. Failing that, they would be adjudged
traitors, their lands and titles forfeit to the throne.
The names he read made Sansa hold her breath. Lord Stannis Baratheon, his lady wife, his daughter.
Lord Renly Baratheon. Both Lord Royces and their sons. Ser Loras Tyrell. Lord Mace Tyrell, his
brothers, uncles, sons. The red priest, Thoros of Myr. Lord Beric Dondarrion. Lady Lysa Arryn and her
son, the little Lord Robert. Lord Hoster Tully, his brother Ser Brynden, his son Ser Edmure. Lord Jason
Mallister. Lord Bryce Caron of the Marches. Lord Tytos Blackwood. Lord Walder Frey and his heir
Ser Stevron. Lord Karyl Vance. Lord Jonos Bracken. Lady Sheila Whent. Doran Martell, Prince of
Dorne, and all his sons. So many, she thought as Pycelle read on and on, it will take a whole flock of
ravens to send out these commands.
And at the end, near last, came the names Sansa had been dreading. Lady Catelyn Stark. Robb Stark.
Brandon Stark, Rickon Stark, Arya Stark. Sansa stifled a gasp. Arya. They wanted Arya to present
herself and swear an oath . . . it must mean her sister had fled on the galley, she must be safe at Winterfell
by now . . .
Grand Maester Pycelle rolled up the list, tucked it up his left sleeve, and pulled another parchment from
his right. He cleared his throat and resumed. "In the place of the traitor Eddard Stark, it is the wish of His
Grace that Tywin Lannister, Lord of Casterly Rock and Warden of the West, take up the office of Hand
of the King, to speak with his voice, lead his armies against his enemies, and carry out his royal will. So
the king has decreed. The small council consents.
"In the place of the traitor Stannis Baratheon, it is the wish of His Grace that his lady mother, the Queen
Regent Cersei Lannister, who has ever been his staunchest support, be seated upon his small council, that
she may help him rule wisely and with justice. So the king has decreed. The small council consents."
Sansa heard a soft murmuring from the lords around her, but it was quickly stilled. Pycelle continued.
"It is also the wish of His Grace that his loyal servant, Janos Slynt, Commander of the City Watch of
King's Landing, be at once raised to the rank of lord and granted the ancient seat of Harrenhal with all its
attendant lands and incomes, and that his sons and grandsons shall hold these honors after him until the
end of time. It is moreover his
command that Lord Slynt be seated immediately upon his small council, to assist in the governance of the
realm. So the king has decreed. The small council consents."
Sansa glimpsed motion from the corner of her eye as Janos Slynt made his entrance. This time the


muttering was louder and angrier. Proud lords whose houses went back thousands of years made way
reluctantly for the balding, frog-faced commoner as he marched past. Golden scales had been sewn onto
the black velvet of his doublet and rang together softly with each step. His cloak was checked
black-andgold satin. Two ugly boys who must have been his sons went before him, struggling with the
weight of a heavy metal shield as tall as they were. For his sigil he had taken a bloody spear, gold on a
night-black field. The sight of it raised goose prickles up and down Sansa's arms.
As Lord Slynt took his place, Grand Maester Pycelle resumed. "Lastly, in these times of treason and
turmoil, with our beloved Robert so lately dead, it is the view of the council that the life and safety of
King Joffrey is of paramount importance He looked to the queen.
Cersei stood. "Ser Barristan Selmy, stand forth."
Ser Barristan had been standing at the foot of the Iron Throne, as still as any statue, but now he went to
one knee and bowed his head. "Your Grace, I am yours to command."
"Rise, Ser Barristan," Cersei Lannister said. "You may remove your helm."
"My lady?" Standing, the old knight took off his high white helm, though he did not seem to understand
why.
"You have served the realm long and faithfully, good ser, and every man and woman in the Seven
Kingdoms owes you thanks. Yet now I fear your service is at an end. It is the wish of king and council
that you lay down your heavy burden."
"My . . . burden? I fear I . . . I do not
The new-made lord, Janos Slynt, spoke up, his voice heavy and blunt. "Her Grace is trying to tell you
that you are relieved as Lord Commander of the Kingsguard."
The tall, white-haired knight seemed to shrink as he stood there, scarcely breathing. "Your Grace," he
said at last. "The Kingsguard is a Sworn Brotherhood. Our vows are taken for life. Only death may
relieve the Lord Commander of his sacred trust."
"Whose death, Ser Barristan?" The queen's voice was soft as silk, but her words carried the whole
length of the hall. "Yours, or your king's?"
"You let my father die," Joffrey said accusingly from atop the Iron Throne. "You're too old to protect
anybody."
Sansa watched as the knight peered up at his new king. She had never seen him look his years before,
yet now he did. "Your Grace," he said. "I was chosen for the White Swords in my twenty-third year. It
was all I had ever dreamed, from the moment I first took sword in hand. I gave up all claim to my
ancestral keep. The girl I was to wed married my cousin in my place, I had no need of land or sons, my
life would be lived for the realm. Ser Gerold Hightower himself heard my vows . . . to ward the king with
all my strength . . . to give my blood for his . . . I fought beside the White Bull and Prince Lewyn of
Dorne . . . beside Ser Arthur Dayne, the Sword of the Morning. Before I served your father, I helped
shield King Aerys, and his father Jaehaerys before him . . . three kings . . ."


"And all of them dead," Littlefinger pointed out.
"Your time is done," Cersei Lannister announced. "Joffrey requires men around him who are young and
strong. The council has determined that Ser Jaime Lannister will take your place as the Lord Commander
of Sworn Brothers of the White Swords."
"The Kingslayer," Ser Barristan said, his voice hard with contempt. "The false knight who profaned his
blade with the blood of the king he had sworn to defend."
"Have a care for your words, ser," the queen warned. "You are speaking of our beloved brother, your
king's own blood."
Lord Varys spoke, gentler than the others. "We are not unmindful of your service, good ser. Lord Tywin
Lannister has generously agreed to grant you a handsome tract of land north of Lannisport, beside the
sea, with gold and men sufficient to build you a stout keep, and servants to see to your every need."
Ser Barristan looked up sharply. "A hall to die in, and men to bury me. I thank you, my lords . . . but I
spit upon your pity." He reached up and undid the clasps that held his cloak in place, and the heavy white
garment slithered from his shoulders to fall in a heap on the floor. His helmet dropped with a clang. "I am
a knight," he told them. He opened the silver fastenings of his breastplate and let that fall as well. "I shall
die a knight."
"A naked knight, it would seem," quipped Littlefinger.
They all laughed then, Joffrey on his throne, and the lords standing attendance, Janos Slynt and Queen
Cersei and Sandor Clegane and even the other men of the Kingsguard, the five who had been his
brothers until a moment ago. Surely that must have hurt the most, Sansa
thought. Her heart went out to the gallant old man as he stood shamed and red-faced, too angry to
speak. Finally he drew his sword.
Sansa heard someone gasp. Ser Boros and Ser Meryn moved forward to confront him, but Ser
Barristan froze them in place with a look that dripped contempt. "Have no fear, sers, your king is safe . . .
no thanks to you. Even now, I could cut through the five of you as easy as a dagger cuts cheese. If you
would serve under the Kingslayer, not a one of you is fit to wear the white." He flung his sword at the
foot of the Iron Throne. "Here, boy. Melt it down and add it to the others, if you like. It will do you more
good than the swords in the hands of these five. Perhaps Lord Stannis will chance to sit on it when he
takes your throne."
He took the long way out, his steps ringing loud against the floor and echoing off the bare stone walls.
Lords and ladies parted to let him pass. Not until the pages had closed the great oak-and-bronze doors
behind him did Sansa hear sounds again: soft voices, uneasy stirrings, the shuffle of papers from the
council table. "He called me boy," Joffrey said peevishly, sounding younger than his years. "He talked
about my uncle Stannis too."
"Idle talk," said Varys the eunuch. "Without meaning
"He could be making plots with my uncles. I want him seized and questioned." No one moved. Joffrey
raised his voice. "I said, I want him seized!"


Janos Slynt rose from the council table. "My gold cloaks will see to it, Your Grace."
"Good," said King Joffrey. Lord Janos strode from the hall, his ugly sons double-stepping to keep up as
they lugged the great metal shield with the arms of House Slynt.
"Your Grace," Littlefinger reminded the king. "If we might resume, the seven are now six. We find
ourselves in need of a new sword for your Kingsguard."
Joffrey smiled. "Tell them, Mother."
"The king and council have determined that no man in the Seven Kingdoms is more fit to guard and
protect His Grace than his sworn shield, Sandor Clegane."
"How do you like that, dog?" King Joffrey asked.
The Hound's scarred face was hard to read. He took a long moment to consider. "Why not? I have no
lands nor wife to forsake, and who'd care if I did?" The burned side of his mouth twisted. "But I warn
you, I'll say no knight's vows."
"The Sworn Brothers of the Kingsguard have always been knights," Ser Boros said firmly.
"Until now," the Hound said in his deep rasp, and Ser Boros fell silent.
When the king's herald moved forward, Sansa realized the moment was almost at hand. She smoothed
down the cloth of her skirt nervously. She was dressed in mourning, as a sign of respect for the dead
king, but she had taken special care to make herself beautiful. Her gown was the ivory silk that the queen
had given her, the one Arya had ruined, but she'd had them dye it black and you couldn't see the stain at
all. She had fretted over her jewelry for hours and finally decided upon the elegant simplicity of a plain
silver chain.
The herald's voice boomed out. "If any man in this hall has other matters to set before His Grace, let him
speak now or go forth and hold his silence."
Sansa quailed. Now, she told herself, I must do it now. Gods give me courage. She took one step, then
another. Lords and knights stepped aside silently to let her pass, and she felt the weight of their eyes on
her. I must be as strong as my lady mother. "Your Grace," she called out in a soft, tremulous voice.
The height of the Iron Throne gave Joffrey a better vantage point than anyone else in the hall. He was the
first to see her. "Come forward, my lady," he called out, smiling.
His smile emboldened her, made her feel beautiful and strong. He does love me, he does. Sansa lifted
her head and walked toward him, not too slow and not too fast. She must not let them see how nervous
she was.
"The Lady Sansa, of House Stark," the herald cried.
She stopped under the throne, at the spot where Ser Barristan's white cloak lay puddled on the floor
beside his helm and breastplate. "Do you have some business for king and council, Sansa?" the queen


asked from the council table.
"I do." She knelt on the cloak, so as not to spoil her gown, and looked up at her prince on his fearsome
black throne. "As it please Your Grace, I ask mercy for my father, Lord Eddard Stark, who was the
Hand of the King." She had practiced the words a hundred times.
The queen sighed. "Sansa, you disappoint me. What did I tell you about traitor's blood?"
"Your father has committed grave and terrible crimes, my lady," Grand Maester Pycelle intoned.
"Ah, poor sad thing," sighed Varys. "She is only a babe, my lords, she does not know what she asks."
Sansa had eyes only for Joffrey. He must listen to me, he must, she
thought. The king shifted on his seat, "Let her speak," he commanded. "I want to hear what she says."
"Thank you, Your Grace." Sansa smiled, a shy secret smile, just for him. He was listening. She knew he
would.
"Treason is a noxious weed," Pycelle declared solemnly. "It must be torn up, root and stem and seed,
lest new traitors sprout from every roadside."
"Do you deny your father's crime?" Lord Baelish asked.
"No, my lords." Sansa knew better than that. "I know he must be punished. All I ask is mercy. I know
my lord father must regret what he did. He was King Robert's friend and he loved him, you all know he
loved him. He never wanted to be Hand until the king asked him. They must have lied to him. Lord Renly
or Lord Stannis or . . . or somebody, they must have lied, otherwise . . ."
King Joffrey leaned forward, hands grasping the arms of the throne. Broken sword points fanned out
between his fingers. "He said I wasn't the king. Why did he say that?"
"His leg was broken," Sansa replied eagerly. "It hurt ever so much, Maester Pycelle was giving him milk
of the poppy, and they say that milk of the poppy fills your head with clouds. Otherwise he would never
have said it."
Varys said, "A child's-faith . . . such sweet innocence . . . and yet, they say wisdom oft comes from the
mouths of babes."
"Treason is treason," Pycelle replied at once.
Joffrey rocked restlessly on the throne. "Mother?"
Cersei Lannister considered Sansa thoughtfully. "If Lord Eddard were to confess his crime," she said at
last, "we would know he had repented his folly."
Joffrey pushed himself to his feet. Please, Sansa thought, please, please, be the king I know you are,
good and kind and noble, please. "Do you have any more to say?" he asked her.


"Only . . . that as you love me, you do me this kindness, my prince," Sansa said.
King Joffrey looked her up and down. "Your sweet words have moved me," he said gallantly, nodding,
as if to say all would be well. "I shall do as you ask . . . but first your father has to confess. He has to
confess and say that I'm the king, or there will be no mercy for him."
"He will," Sansa said, heart soaring. "Oh, I know he will."
EDDARD
The straw on the floor stank of urine. There was no window, no bed, not even a slop bucket. He
remembered walls of pale red stone festooned with patches of nitre, a grey door of splintered wood, four
inches thick and studded with iron. He had seen them, briefly, a quick glimpse as they shoved him inside.
Once the door had slammed shut, he had seen no more. The dark was absolute. He had as well been
blind.
Or dead. Buried with his king. "Ah, Robert," he murmured as his groping hand touched a cold stone
wall, his leg throbbing with every motion. He remembered the jest the king had shared in the crypts of
Winterfell, as the Kings of Winter looked on with cold stone eyes. The king eats, Robert had said, and
the Hand takes the shit. How he had laughed. Yet he had gotten it wrong. The king dies, Ned Stark
thought, and the Hand is buried.
The dungeon was under the Red Keep, deeper than he dared imagine. He remembered the old stories
about Maegor the Cruel, who murdered all the masons who labored on his castle, so they might never
reveal its secrets.
He damned them all: Littlefinger, Janos Slynt and his gold cloaks, the queen, the Kingslayer, Pycelle and
Varys and Ser Barristan, even Lord Renly, Robert's own blood, who had run when he was needed
most. Yet in the end he blamed himself. "Fool, " he cried to the darkness, "thrice-damned blind fool."
Cersei Lannister's face seemed to float before him in the darkness. Her hair was full of sunlight, but there
was mockery in her smile. "When you play the game of thrones, you win or you die," she whispered.
Ned had played and lost, and his men had paid the price of his folly with their life's blood.
When he thought of his daughters, he would have wept gladly, but the tears would not come. Even now,
he was a Stark of Winterfell, and his grief and his rage froze hard inside him.
When he kept very still, his leg did not hurt so much, so he did his best to lie unmoving. For how long he
could not say. There was no sun and no moon. He could not see to mark the walls. Ned closed his eyes
and opened them; it made no difference. He slept and woke and slept again. He did not know which was
more painful, the waking or the sleeping. When he slept, he dreamed: dark disturbing dreams of blood
and broken promises. When he woke, there was nothing to do but think, and his waking thoughts were
worse than nightmares. The thought of Cat was as painful as a bed of nettles. He wondered where she
was, what she was doing. He wondered whether he would ever see her again.
Hours turned to days, or so it seemed. He could feel a dull ache in his shattered leg, an itch beneath the


plaster. When he touched his thigh, the flesh was hot to his fingers. The only sound was his breathing.
After a time, he began to talk aloud, just to hear a voice. He made plans to keep himself sane, built
castles of hope in the dark. Robert's brothers were out in the world, raising armies at Dragonstone and
Storm's End. Alyn and Harwin would return to King's Landing with the rest of his household guard once
they had dealt with Ser Gregor. Catelyn would raise the north when the word reached her, and the lords
of river and mountain and Vale would join her.
He found himself thinking of Robert more and more. He saw the king as he had been in the flower of his
youth, tall and handsome, his great antlered helm on his head, his warhammer in hand, sitting his horse
like a horned god. He heard his laughter in the dark, saw his eyes, blue and clear as mountain lakes.
"Look at us, Ned," Robert said. "Gods, how did we come to this? You here, and me killed by a pig. We
won a throne together . . ."
Ifailed you, Robert, Ned thought. He could not say the words. I lied to you, hid the truth. I let them kill
you.
The king heard him. "You stiff-necked fool," he muttered, "too proud to listen. Can you eat pride, Stark?
Will honor shield your
children?" Cracks ran down his face, fissures opening in the flesh, and he reached up and ripped the
mask away. It was not Robert at all; it was Littlefinger, grinning, mocking him. When he opened his
mouth to speak, his lies turned to pale grey moths and took wing.
Ned was half-asleep when the footsteps came down the hall. At first he thought he dreamt them; it had
been so long since he had heard anything but the sound of his own voice. Ned was feverish by then, his
leg a dull agony, his lips parched and cracked. When the heavy wooden door creaked open, the sudden
light was painful to his eyes.
A gaoler thrust a jug at him. The clay was cool and beaded with moisture. Ned grasped it with both
hands and gulped eagerly. Water ran from his mouth and dripped down through his beard. He drank until
he thought he would be sick. "How long . . . T' he asked weakly when he could drink no more.
The gaoler was a scarecrow of a man with a rat's face and frayed beard, clad in a mail shirt and a leather
half cape. "No talking," he said as he wrenched the jug from Ned's hands.
"Please," Ned said, "my daughters . . ." The door crashed shut. He blinked as the light vanished, lowered
his head to his chest, and curled up on the straw. It no longer stank of urine and shit. It no longer smelled
at all.
He could no longer tell the difference between waking and sleeping. The memory came creeping upon
him in the darkness, as vivid as a dream. It was the year of false spring, and he was eighteen again, down
from the Eyrie to the tourney at Harrenhal. He could see the deep green of the grass, and smell the pollen
on the wind. Warm days and cool nights and the sweet taste of wine. He remembered Brandon's
laughter, and Robert's berserk valor in the melee, the way he laughed as he unhorsed men left and right.
He remembered Jaime Lannister, a golden youth in scaled white armor, kneeling on the grass in front of
the king's pavilion and making his vows to protect and defend King Aerys. Afterward, Ser Oswell Whent
helped Jaime to his feet, and the White Bull himself, Lord Commander Ser Gerold Hightower, fastened
the snowy cloak of the Kingsguard about his shoulders. All six White Swords were there to welcome
their newest brother.


Yet when the jousting began, the day belonged to Rhaegar Targaryen. The crown prince wore the armor
he would die in: gleaming black plate with the three-headed dragon of his House wrought in rubies on the
breast. A plume of scarlet silk streamed behind him when he rode, and it seemed no lance could touch
him. Brandon fell to him, and Bronze Yohn Royce, and even the splendid Ser Arthur Dayne, the Sword
of the Morning.
Robert had been jesting with Jon and old Lord Hunter as the prince circled the field after unhorsing Ser
Barristan in the final tilt to claim the champion's crown. Ned remembered the moment when all the smiles
died, when Prince Rhaegar Targaryen urged his horse past his own wife, the Dornish princess Elia
Martell, to lay the queen of beauty's laurel in Lyanna's lap. He could see it still: a crown of winter roses,
blue as frost.
Ned Stark reached out his hand to grasp the flowery crown, but beneath the pale blue petals the thorns
lay hidden. He felt them clawing at his skin, sharp and cruel, saw the slow trickle of blood run down his
fingers, and woke, trembling, in the dark.
Promise me, Ned, his sister had whispered from her bed of blood. She had loved the scent of winter
roses.
"Gods save me," Ned wept. "I am going mad."
The gods did not deign to answer.
Each time the turnkey brought him water, he told himself another day had passed. At first he would beg
the man for some word of his daughters and the world beyond his cell. Grunts and kicks were his only
replies. Later, when the stomach cramps began, he begged for food instead. It made no matter; he was
not fed. Perhaps the Lannisters meant for him to starve to death. "No," he told himself. If Cersei had
wanted him dead, he would have been cut down in the throne room with his men. She wanted him alive.
Weak, desperate, yet alive. Catelyn held her brother; she dare not kill him or the Imp's life would be
forfeit as well.
From outside his cell came the rattle of iron chains. As the door creaked open, Ned put a hand to the
damp wall and pushed himself toward the light. The glare of a torch made him squint. "Food," he
croaked.
"Wine," a voice answered. It was not the rat-faced man; this gaoler was stouter, shorter, though he wore
the same leather half cape and spiked steel cap. "Drink, Lord Eddard." He thrust a wineskin into Ned's
hands.
The voice was strangely familiar, yet it took Ned Stark a moment to place it. "Varys?" he said groggily
when it came. He touched the man's face. "I'm not . . . not dreaming this. You're here." The eunuch's
plump cheeks were covered with a dark stubble of beard. Ned felt the coarse hair with his fingers. Varys
had transformed himself into a grizzled turnkey, reeking of sweat and sour wine. "How did you . . . what
sort of magician are you?"
"A thirsty one," Varys said. "Drink, my lord."


Ned's hands fumbled at the skin. "Is this the same poison they gave Robert?"
"You wrong me," Varys said sadly. "Truly, no one loves a eunuch. Give me the skin." He drank, a trickle
of red leaking from the corner of his plump mouth. "Not the equal of the vintage you offered me the night
of the tourney, but no more poisonous than most," he concluded, wiping his lips. "Here."
Ned tried a swallow. "Dregs." He felt as though he were about to bring the wine back up.
"All men must swallow the sour with the sweet. High lords and eunuchs alike. Your hour has come, my
lord."
"My daughters . . ."
"The younger girl escaped Ser Meryn and fled," Varys told him. "I have not been able to find her. Nor
have the Lannisters. A kindness, there. Our new king loves her not. Your older girl is still betrothed to
Joffrey. Cersei keeps her close. She came to court a few days ago to plead that you be spared. A pity
you couldn't have been there, you would have been touched." He leaned forward intently. "I trust you
realize that you are a dead man, Lord Eddard?"
"The queen will not kill me," Ned said. His head swam; the wine was strong, and it had been too long
since he'd eaten. "Cat . . . Cat holds her brother . . ."
"The wrong brother," Varys sighed. "And lost to her, in any case. She let the Imp slip through her
fingers. I expect he is dead by now, somewhere in the Mountains of the Moon."
"If that is true, slit my throat and have done with it." He was dizzy from the wine, tired and heartsick.
"Your blood is the last thing I desire."
Ned frowned. "When they slaughtered my guard, you stood beside the queen and watched, and said not
a word."
"And would again. I seem to recall that I was unarmed, unarmored, and surrounded by Lannister
swords." The eunuch looked at him curiously, tilting his head. "When I was a young boy, before I was
cut, I traveled with a troupe of mummers through the Free Cities. They taught me that each man has a
role to play, in life as well as mummery. So it is at court. The King's Justice must be fearsome, the master
of coin must be frugal, the Lord Commander of the Kingsguard must be valiant . . . and the master of
whisperers must be sly and obsequious and without scruple. A courageous informer would be as useless
as a cowardly knight." He took the wineskin back and drank.
Ned studied the eunuch's face, searching for truth beneath the
mummer's scars and false stubble. He tried some more wine. This time it went down easier. "Can you
free me from this pit?"
"I could . . . but will I? No. Questions would be asked, and the answers would lead back to me."
Ned had expected no more. "You are blunt."


"A eunuch has no honor, and a spider does not enjoy the luxury of scruples, my lord."
"Would you at least consent to carry a message out for me?"
"That would depend on the message. I will gladly provide you with paper and ink, if you like. And when
you have written what you will, I will take the letter and read it, and deliver it or not, as best serves my
own ends."
"Your own ends. What ends are those, Lord Varys?"
"Peace," Varys replied without hesitation. "If there was one soul in King's Landing who was truly
desperate to keep Robert Baratheon alive, it was me." He sighed. "For fifteen years I protected him from
his enemies, but I could not protect him from his friends. What strange fit of madness led you to tell the
queen that you had learned the truth of Joffrey's birth?"
"The madness of mercy," Ned admitted.
"Ah," said Varys. "To be sure. You are an honest and honorable man, Lord Eddard. Ofttimes I forget
that. I have met so few of them in my life." He glanced around the cell. "When I see what honesty and
honor have won you, I understand why."
Ned Stark laid his head back against the damp stone wall and closed his eyes. His leg was throbbing.
"The king's wine . . . did you question Lancel?"
"Oh, indeed. Cersei gave him the wineskins, and told him it was Robert's favorite vintage." The eunuch
shrugged. "A hunter lives a perilous life. If the boar had not done for Robert, it would have been a fall
from a horse, the bite of a wood adder, an arrow gone astray . . . the forest is the abbatoir of the gods. It
was not wine that killed the king. It was your mercy."
Ned had feared as much. "Gods forgive me."
"If there are gods," Varys said, "I expect they will. The queen would not have waited long in any case.
Robert was becoming unruly, and she needed to be rid of him to free her hands to deal with his brothers.
They are quite a pair, Stannis and Renly. The iron gauntlet and the silk glove." He wiped his mouth with
the back of his hand. "You have been foolish, my lord. You ought to have heeded Littlefinger when he
urged you to support Joffrey's succession."
"How . . . how could you know of that?"
Varys smiled. "I know, that's all that need concern you. I also know that on the morrow the queen will
pay you a visit."
Slowly Ned raised his eyes. "Why?"
"Cersei is frightened of you, my lord . . . but she has other enemies she fears even more. Her beloved
Jaime is fighting the river lords even now. Lysa Arryn sits in the Eyrie, ringed in stone and steel, and there
is no love lost between her and the queen. In Dorne, the Martells still brood on the murder of Princess
Elia and her babes. And now your son marches down the Neck with a northern host at his back."


"Robb is only a boy," Ned said, aghast.
"A boy with an army," Varys said. "Yet only a boy, as you say. The king's brothers are the ones giving
Cersei sleepless nights . . . Lord Stannis in particular. His claim is the true one, he is known for his
prowess as a battle commander, and he is utterly without mercy. There is no creature on earth half so
terrifying as a truly just man. No one knows what Stannis has been doing on Dragonstone, but I will
wager you that he's gathered more swords than seashells. So here is Cersei's nightmare: while her father
and brother spend their power battling Starks and Tullys, Lord Stannis will land, proclaim himself king,
and lop off her son's curly blond head . . . and her own in the bargain, though I truly believe she cares
more about the boy."
"Stannis Baratheon is Robert's true heir," Ned said. "The throne is his by rights. I would welcome his
ascent."
Varys tsked. "Cersei will not want to hear that, I promise you. Stannis may win the throne, but only your
rotting head will remain to cheer unless you guard that tongue of yours. Sansa begged so sweetly, it
would be a shame if you threw it all away. You are being given your life back, if you'll take it. Cersei is
no fool. She knows a tame wolf is of more use than a dead one."
"You want me to serve the woman who murdered my king, butchered my men, and crippled my son?"
Ned's voice was thick with disbelief.
"I want you to serve the realm," Varys said. "Tell the queen that you will confess your vile treason,
command your son to lay down his sword, and proclaim Joffrey as the true heir. Offer to denounce
Stannis and Renly as faithless usurpers. Our green-eyed lioness knows you are a man of honor. If you
will give her the peace she needs and the time to deal with Stannis, and pledge to carry her secret to your
grave, I believe she will allow you to take the black and live out the rest of your days on the Wall, with
your brother and that baseborn son of yours."
The thought of Jon filled Ned with a sense of shame, and a sorrow
too deep for words. If only he could see the boy again, sit and talk with him . . . pain shot through his
broken leg, beneath the filthy grey plaster of his cast. He winced, his fingers opening and closing
helplessly. "Is this your own scheme," he gasped out at Varys, "or are you in league with Littlefinger?"
That seemed to amuse the eunuch. "I would sooner wed the Black Goat of Qohor. Littlefinger is the
second most devious man in the Seven Kingdoms. Oh, I feed him choice whispers, sufficient so that he
thinks I am his . . . just as I allow Cersei to believe I am hers."
"And just as you let me believe that you were mine. Tell me, Lord Varys, who do you truly serve?"
Varys smiled thinly. "Why, the realm, my good lord, how ever could you doubt that? I swear it by my
lost manhood. I serve the realm, and the realm needs peace." He finished the last swallow of wine, and
tossed the empty skin aside. "So what is your answer, Lord Eddard? Give me your word that you'll tell
the queen what she wants to hear when she comes calling."
"If I did, my word would be as hollow as an empty suit of armor. My life is not so precious to me as
that."


"Pity." The eunuch stood. "And your daughter's life, my lord? How precious is that?"
A chill pierced Ned's heart. "My daughter
"Surely you did not think I'd forgotten about your sweet innocent, my lord? The queen most certainly has
not."
"No, " Ned pleaded, his voice cracking. "Varys, gods have mercy, do as you like with me, but leave my
daughter out of your schemes. Sansa's no more than a child."
"Rhaenys was a child too. Prince Rhaegar's daughter. A precious little thing, younger than your girls. She
had a small black kitten she called Balerion, did you know? I always wondered what happened to him.
Rhaenys liked to pretend he was the true Balerion, the Black Dread of old, but I imagine the Lannisters
taught her the difference between a kitten and a dragon quick enough, the day they broke down her
door." Varys gave a long weary sigh, the sigh of a man who carried all the sadness of the world in a sack
upon his shoulders. "The High Septon once told me that as we sin, so do we suffer. If that's true, Lord
Eddard, tell me . . . why is it always the innocents who suffer most, when you high lords play your game
of thrones? Ponder it, if you would, while you wait upon the queen. And spare a thought for this as well:
The next visitor who calls on you could bring you bread and cheese and the milk of the poppy for your
pain . . . or he could bring you Sansa's head.
"The choice, my dear lord Hand, is entirely yours."
CATELYN
As the host trooped down the causeway through the black bogs of the Neck and spilled out into the
riverlands beyond, Catelyn's apprehensions grew. She masked her fears behind a face kept still and
stern, yet they were there all the same, growing with every league they crossed. Her days were anxious,
her nights restless, and every raven that flew overhead made her clench her teeth.
She feared for her lord father, and wondered at his ominous silence. She feared for her brother Edmure,
and prayed that the gods would watch over him if he must face the Kingslayer in battle. She feared for
Ned and her girls, and for the sweet sons she had left behind at Winterfell. And yet there was nothing she
could do for any of them, and so she made herself put all thought of them aside. You must save your
strength for Robb, she told herself. He is the only one you can help. You must be as fierce and hard as
the north, Catelyn Tully. You must be a Stark for true now, like your son.
Robb rode at the front of the column, beneath the flapping white banner of Winterfell. Each day he
would ask one of his lords to join him, so they might confer as they marched; he honored every man in
turn, showing no favorites, listening as his lord father had listened, weighing the words of one against the
other. He has learned so much from Ned, she thought as she watched him, but has he learned enough?
The Blackfish had taken a hundred picked men and a hundred swift
horses and raced ahead to screen their movements and scout the way. The reports Ser Brynden's riders
brought back did little to reassure her. Lord Tywin's host was still many days to the south . . . but Walder


Frey, Lord of the Crossing, had assembled a force of near four thousand men at his castles on the Green
Fork.
"Late again," Catelyn murmured when she heard. It was the Trident all over, damn the man. Her brother
Edmure had called the banners; by rights, Lord Frey should have gone to join the Tully host at Riverrun,
yet here he sat.
"Four thousand men," Robb repeated, more perplexed than angry. "Lord Frey cannot hope to fight the
Lannisters by himself. Surely he means to join his power to ours."
"Does he?" Catelyn asked. She had ridden forward to join Robb and Robett Glover, his companion of
the day. The vanguard spread out behind them, a slow-moving forest of lances and banners and spears.
"I wonder. Expect nothing of Walder Frey, and you will never be surprised."
"He's your father's bannerman."
"Some men take their oaths more seriously than others, Robb. And Lord Walder was always friendlier
with Casterly Rock than my father would have liked. One of his sons is wed to Tywin Lannister's sister.
That means little of itself, to be sure. Lord Walder has sired a great many children over the years, and
they must needs marry someone. Still . . ."
"Do you think he means to betray us to the Lannisters, my lady?" Robett Glover asked gravely.
Catelyn sighed. "If truth be told, I doubt even Lord Frey knows what Lord Frey intends to do. He has
an old man's caution and a young man's ambition, and has never lacked for cunning."
"We must have the Twins, Mother," Robb said heatedly. "There is no other way across the river. You
know that."
"Yes. And so does Walder Frey, you can be sure of that."
That night they made camp on the southern edge of the bogs, halfway between the kingsroad and the
river. It was there Theon Greyjoy brought them further word from her uncle. "Ser Brynden says to tell
you he's crossed swords with the Lannisters. There are a dozen scouts who won't be reporting back to
Lord Tywin anytime soon. Or ever." He grinned. "Ser Addam Marbrand commands their outriders, and
he's pulling back south, burning as he goes. He knows where we are, more or less, but the Blackfish
vows he will not know when we split."
"Unless Lord Frey tells him," Catelyn said sharply. "Theon, when
you return to my uncle, tell him he is to place his best bowmen around the Twins, day and night, with
orders to bring down any raven they see leaving the battlements. I want no birds bringing word of my
son's movements to Lord Tywin."
"Ser Brynden has seen to it already, my lady," Theon replied with a cocky smile. "A few more
blackbirds, and we should have enough to bake a pie. I'll save you their feathers for a hat."
She ought to have known that Brynden Blackfish would be well ahead of her. "What have the Freys
been doing while the Lannisters; burn their fields and plunder their holdfasts?"


"There's been some fighting between Ser Addam's men and Lord Walder's," Theon answered. "Not a
day's ride from here, we found two Lannister scouts feeding the crows where the Freys had strung them
up. Most of Lord Walder's strength remains massed at the Twins, though."
That bore Walder Frey's seal beyond a doubt, Catelyn thought bitterly; hold back, wait, watch, take no
risk unless forced to it.
"If he's been fighting the Lannisters, perhaps he does mean to hold to his vows," Robb said.
Catelyn was less encouraged. "Defending his own lands is one thing, open battle against Lord Tywin
quite another."
Robb turned back to Theon Greyjoy. "Has the Blackfish found any other way across the Green Fork?"
Theon shook his head. "The river's running high and fast. Ser Brynden says it can't be forded, not this far
north."
"I must have that crossing!" Robb declared, fuming. "Oh, our horses might be able to swim the river, I
suppose, but not with armored men on their backs. We'd need to build rafts to pole our steel across,
helms and mail and lances, and we don't have the trees for that. Or the time. Lord Tywin is marching
north He balled his hand into a fist.
"Lord Frey would be a fool to try and bar our way," Theon Greyjoy said with his customary easy
confidence. "We have five times his numbers. You can take the Twins if you need to, Robb."
"Not easily," Catelyn warned them, "and not in time. While you were mounting your siege, Tywin
Lannister would bring up his host and assault you from the rear."
Robb glanced from her to Greyjoy, searching for an answer and finding none. For a moment he looked
even younger than his fifteen years, despite his mail and sword and the stubble on his cheeks. "What
would my lord father do?" he asked her.
"Find a way across," she told him. "Whatever it took."
The next morning it was Ser Brynden Tully himself who rode back to them. He had put aside the heavy
plate and helm he'd worn as the Knight of the Gate for the lighter leather-and-mail of an outrider, but his
obsidian fish still fastened his cloak.
Her uncle's face was grave as he swung down off his horse. "There has been a battle under the walls of
Riverrun," he said, his mouth grim. "We had it from a Lannister outrider we took captive. The Kingslayer
has destroyed Edmure's host and sent the lords of the Trident reeling in flight."
A cold hand clutched at Catelyn's heart. "And my brother?"
"Wounded and taken prisoner," Ser Brynden said. "Lord Blackwood and the other survivors are under
siege inside Riverrun, surrounded by Jaime's host."
Robb looked fretful. "We must get across this accursed river if we're to have any hope of relieving them


in time."
"That will not be easily done," her uncle cautioned. "Lord Frey has pulled his whole strength back inside
his castles, and his gates are closed and barred."
"Damn the man," Robb swore. "If the old fool does not relent and let me cross, he'll leave me no choice
but to storm his walls. I'll pull the Twins down around his ears if I have to, we'll see how well he likes
that!"
"You sound like a sulky boy, Robb," Catelyn said sharply. "A child sees an obstacle, and his first thought
is to run around it or knock it down. A lord must learn that sometimes words can accomplish what
swords cannot."
Robb's neck reddened at the rebuke. "Tell me what you mean, Mother," he said meekly.
"The Freys have held the crossing for six hundred years, and for six hundred years they have never failed
to exact their toll."
"What toll? What does he want?"
She smiled. "That is what we must discover."
"And what if I do not choose to pay this toll?"
"Then you had best retreat back to Moat Cailin, deploy to meet Lord Tywin in battle . . . or grow wings.
I see no other choices." Catelyn put her heels to her horse and rode off, leaving her son to ponder her
words. It would not do to make him feel as if his mother were usurping his place. Did you teach him
wisdom as well as valor, Ned? she wondered. Didyou teach him how to kneel? The graveyards of the
Seven Kingdoms were full of brave men who had never learned that lesson.
It was near midday when their vanguard came in sight of the Twins, where the Lords of the Crossing had
their seat.
The Green Fork ran swift and deep here, but the Freys had spanned it many centuries past and grown
rich off the coin men paid them to cross. Their bridge was a massive arch of smooth grey rock, wide
enough for two wagons to pass abreast; the Water Tower rose from the center of the span, commanding
both road and river with its arrow slits, murder holes, and portcullises. It had taken the Freys three
generations to complete their bridge; when they were done they'd thrown up stout timber keeps on either
bank, so no one might cross without their leave.
The timber had long since given way to stone. The Twins-two squat, ugly, formidable castles, identical in
every respect, with the bridge arching between-had guarded the crossing for centuries. High curtain
walls, deep moats, and heavy oak-and-iron gates protected the approaches, the bridge footings rose
from within stout inner keeps, there was a barbican and portcullis on either bank, and the Water Tower
defended the span itself.
One glance was sufficient to tell Catelyn that the castle would not be taken by storm. The battlements
bristled with spears and swords and scorpions, there was an archer at every crenel and arrow slit, the
drawbridge was up, the portcullis down, the gates closed and barred.


The Greatjon began to curse and swear as soon as he saw what awaited them. Lord Rickard Karstark
glowered in silence. "That cannot be assaulted, my lords," Roose Bolton announced.
"Nor can we take it by siege, without an army on the far bank to invest the other castle," Helman Tallhart
said gloomily. Across the deep-running green waters, the western twin stood like a reflection of its
eastern brother. "Even if we had the time. Which, to be sure, we do not."
As the northern lords studied the castle, a sally port opened, a plank bridge slid across the moat, and a
dozen knights rode forth to confront them, led by four of Lord Walder's many sons. Their banner bore
twin towers, dark blue on a field of pale silver-grey. Ser Stevron Frey, Lord Walder's heir, spoke for
them. The Freys all looked like weasels; Ser Stevron, past sixty with grandchildren of his own, looked
like an especially old and tired weasel, yet he was polite enough. "My lord father has sent me to greet
you, and inquire as to who leads this mighty host."
"I do." Robb spurred his horse forward. He was in his armor, with the direwolf shield of Winterfell
strapped to his saddle and Grey Wind padding by his side.
The old knight looked at her son with a faint flicker of amusement
in his watery grey eyes, though his gelding whickered uneasily and sidled away from the direwolf. "My
lord father would be most honored if you would share meat and mead with him in the castle and explain
your purpose here."
His words crashed among the lords bannermen like a great stone from a catapult. Not one of them
approved. They cursed, argued, shouted down each other.
"You must not do this, my lord," Galbart Glover pleaded with Robb. "Lord Walder is not to be trusted."
Roose Bolton nodded. "Go in there alone and you're his. He can sell you to the Lannisters, throw you in
a dungeon, or slit your throat, as he likes."
"If he wants to talk to us, let him open his gates, and we will all share his meat and mead," declared Ser
Wendel Manderly.
"Or let him come out and treat with Robb here, in plain sight of his men and ours," suggested his brother,
Ser Wylis.
Catelyn Stark shared all their doubts, but she had only to glance at Ser Stevron to see that he was not
pleased by what he was hearing. A few more words and the chance would be lost. She had to act, and
quickly. "I will go, " she said loudly.
"You, my lady?" The Greatjon furrowed his brow.
"Mother, are you certain?" Clearly, Robb was not.
"Never more," Catelyn lied glibly. "Lord Walder is my father's bannerman. I have known him since I was
a girt. He would never offer me any harm." Unless he saw some profit in it, she added silently, but some
truths did not bear saying, and some lies were necessary.


"I am certain my lord father would be pleased to speak to the Lady Catelyn," Ser Stevron said. "To
vouchsafe for our good intentions, my brother Ser Perwyn will remain here until she is safely returned to
you.,,
"He shall be our honored guest," said Robb. Ser Perwyn, the youngest of the four Freys in the party,
dismounted and handed the reins of his horse to a brother. "I require my lady mother's return by evenfall,
Ser Stevron," Robb went on. "It is not my intent to linger here long."
Ser Stevron Frey gave a polite nod. "As you say, my lord." Catelyn spurred her horse forward and did
not look back. Lord Walder's sons and envoys fell in around her.
Her father had once said of Walder Frey that he was the only lord in the Seven Kingdoms who could
field an army out of his breeches. When the Lord of the Crossing welcomed Catelyn in the great hall of
the east castle, surrounded by twenty living sons (minus Ser Perwyn, who would have made twenty-one),
thirty-six grandsons, nineteen
great-grandsons, and numerous daughters, granddaughters, bastards, and grandbastards, she
understood just what he had meant.
Lord Walder was ninety, a wizened pink weasel with a bald spotted head, too gouty to stand unassisted.
His newest wife, a pale frail girl of sixteen years, walked beside his litter when they carried him in. She
was the eighth Lady Frey.
"It is a great pleasure to see you again after so many years, my lord," Catelyn said.
The old man squinted at her suspiciously. "Is it? I doubt that. Spare me your sweet words, Lady
Catelyn, I am too old. Why are you here? Is your boy too proud to come before me himself? What am I
to do with you?"
Catelyn had been a girl the last time she had visited the Twins, but even then Lord Walder had been
irascible, sharp of tongue, and blunt of manner. Age had made him worse than ever, it would seem. She
would need to choose her words with care, and do her best to take no offense from his.
"Father," Ser Stevron said reproachfully, "you forget yourself. Lady Stark is here at your invitation."
"Did I askyou? You are not Lord Frey yet, not until I die. Do I look dead? I'll hear no instructions from
you."
"This is no way to speak in front of our noble guest, Father," one of his younger sons said.
"Now my bastards presume to teach me courtesy," Lord Walder complained. "I'll speak any way I like,
damn you. I've had three kings to guest in my life, and queens as well, do you think I require lessons from
the likes of you, Ryger? Your mother was milking goats the first time I gave her my seed." He dismissed
the red-faced youth with a flick of his fingers and gestured to two of his other sons. "Danwell, Whalen,
help me to my chair."
They shifted Lord Walder from his litter and carried him to the high seat of the Freys, a tall chair of black
oak whose back was carved in the shape of two towers linked by a bridge. His young wife crept up


timidly and covered his legs with a blanket. When he was settled, the old man beckoned Catelyn forward
and planted a papery dry kiss on her hand. "There," he announced. "Now that I have observed the
courtesies, my lady, perhaps my sons will do me the honor of shutting their mouths. Why are you here?"
"To ask you to open your gates, my lord," Catelyn replied politely. "My son and his lords bannermen are
most anxious to cross the river and be on their way."
"To Riverrun?" He sniggered. "Oh, no need to tell me, no need. I'm not blind yet. The old man can still
read a map."
"To Riverrun," Catelyn confirmed. She saw no reason to deny it. "Where I might have expected to find
you, my lord. You are still my father's bannerman, are you not?"
"Heh, " said Lord Walder, a noise halfway between a laugh and a grunt. "I called my swords, yes I did,
here they are, you saw them on the walls. It was my intent to march as soon as all my strength was
assembled. Well, to send my sons. I am well past marching myself, Lady Catelyn." He looked around for
likely confirmation and pointed to a tall, stooped man of fifty years. "Tell her, Jared. Tell her that was my
intent."
"It was, my lady," said Ser Jared Frey, one of his sons by his second wife. "On my honor."
"Is it my fault that your fool brother lost his battle before we could march?" He leaned back against his
cushions and scowled at her, as if challenging her to dispute his version of events. "I am told the
Kingslayer went through him like an axe through ripe cheese. Why should my boys hurry south to die?
All those who did go south are running north again."
Catelyn would gladly have spitted the querulous old man and roasted him over a fire, but she had only till
evenfall to open the bridge. Calmly, she said, "All the more reason that we must reach Riverrun, and
soon. Where can we go to talk, my lord?"
"We're talking now," Lord Frey complained. The spotted pink head snapped around. "What are you all
looking at?" he shouted at his kin. "Get out of here. Lady Stark wants to speak to me in private. Might be
she has designs on my fidelity, heh. Go, all of you, find something useful to do. Yes, you too, woman.
Out, out, out." As his sons and grandsons and daughters and bastards and nieces and nephews streamed
from the hall, he leaned close to Catelyn and confessed, "They're all waiting for me to die. Stevron's been
waiting for forty years, but I keep disappointing him. Heh. Why should I die just so he can be a lord? I
ask you. I won't do it."
"I have every hope that you will live to be a hundred."
"That would boil them, to be sure. Oh, to be sure. Now, what do you want to say?"
"We want to cross," Catelyn told him.
"Oh, do you? That's blunt. Why should I let you?"
For a moment her anger flared. "If you were strong enough to climb your own battlements, Lord Frey,
you would see that my son has twenty thousand men outside your walls."


"They'll be twenty thousand fresh corpses when Lord Tywin gets here," the old man shot back. "Don't
you try and frighten me, my lady. Your husband's in some traitor's cell under the Red Keep, your father's
sick, might be dying, and Jaime Lannister's got your brother in chains. What do you have that I should
fear? That son of yours? I'll match you son for son, and I'll still have eighteen when yours are all dead."
"You swore an oath to my father," Catelyn reminded him.
He bobbed his head side to side, smiling. "Oh, yes, I said some words, but I swore oaths to the crown
too, it seems to me. Joffrey's the king now, and that makes you and your boy and all those fools out there
no better than rebels. If I had the sense the gods gave a fish, I'd help the Lannisters boil you all."
"Why don't you?" she challenged him.
Lord Walder snorted with disdain. "Lord Tywin the proud and splendid, Warden of the West, Hand of
the King, oh, what a great man that one is, him and his gold this and gold that and lions here and lions
there. I'll wager you, he cats too many beans, he breaks wind just like me, but you'll never hear him admit
it, oh, no. What's he got to be so puffed up about anyway? Only two sons, and one of them's a twisted
little monster. I'll match him son for son, and I'll still have nineteen and a half left when all of his are dead!"
He cackled. "If Lord Tywin wants my help, he can bloody well ask for it."
That was all Catelyn needed to hear. "I am asking for your help, my lord," she said humbly. "And my
father and my brother and my lord husband and my sons are asking with my voice."
Lord Walder jabbed a bony finger at her face. "Save your sweet words, my lady. Sweet words I get
from my wife. Did you see her? Sixteen she is, a little flower, and her honey's only for me. I wager she
gives me a son by this time next year. Perhaps I'll make him heir, wouldn't that boil the rest of them?"
"I'm certain she will give you many sons."
His head bobbed up and down. "Your lord father did not come to the wedding. An insult, as I see it.
Even if he is dying. He never came to my last wedding either. He calls me the Late Lord Frey, you know.
Does he think I'm dead? I'm not dead, and I promise you, I'll outlive him as I outlived his father. Your
family has always pissed on me, don't deny it, don't lie, you know it's true. Years ago, I went to your
father and suggested a match between his son and my daughter. Why not? I had a daughter in mind,
sweet girl, only a few years older than Edmure, but if your brother didn't warm to her, I had others he
might have had, young ones, old ones, virgins, widows, whatever he wanted.
No, Lord Hoster would not hear of it. Sweet words he gave me, excuses, but what I wanted was to get
rid of a daughter.
"And your sister, that one, she's full as bad. It was, oh, a year ago, no more, Jon Arryn was still the
King's Hand, and I went to the city to see my sons ride in the tourney. Stevron and Jared are too old for
the lists now, but Danwell and Hosteen rode, Perwyn as well, and a couple of my bastards tried the
melee. If I'd known how they'd shame me, I would never have troubled myself to make the journey. Why
did I need to ride all that way to see Hosteen knocked off his horse by that Tyrell whelp? I ask you. The
boy's half his age, Ser Daisy they call him, something like that. And Danwell was unhorsed by a hedge
knight! Some days I wonder if those two are truly mine. My third wife was a Crakehall, all of the


Crakehall women are sluts. Well, never mind about that, she died before you were born, what do you
care?
"I was speaking of your sister. I proposed that Lord and Lady Arryn foster two of my grandsons at
court, and offered to take their own son to ward here at the Twins. Are my grandsons unworthy to be
seen at the king's court? They are sweet boys, quiet and mannerly. Walder is Merrett's son, named after
me, and the other one . . . heh, I don't recall . . . he might have been another Walder, they're always
naming them Walder so I'll favor them, but his father . . . which one was his father now?" His face
wrinkled up. "Well, whoever he was, Lord Arryn wouldn't have him, or the other one, and I blame your
lady sister for that. She frosted up as if I'd suggested selling her boy to a mummer's show or making a
eunuch out of him, and when Lord Arryn said the child was going to Dragonstone to foster with Stannis
Baratheon, she stormed off without a word of regrets and all the Hand could give me was apologies.
What good are apologies? I ask you."
Catelyn frowned, disquieted. "I had understood that Lysa's boy was to be fostered with Lord Tywin at
Casterly Rock."
"No, it was Lord Stannis," WaIder Frey said irritably. "Do you think I can't tell Lord Stannis from Lord
Tywin? They're both bungholes who think they're too noble to shit, but never mind about that, I know the
difference. Or do you think I'm so old I can't remember? I'm ninety and I remember very well. I
remember what to do with a woman too. That wife of mine will give me a son before this time next year,
I'll wager. Or a daughter, that can't be helped. Boy or girl, it will be red, wrinkled, and squalling, and like
as not she'll want to name it Walder or Walda."
Catelyn was not concerned with what Lady Frey might choose to name her child. "Jon Arryn was going
to foster his son with Lord Stannis, you are quite certain of that?"
"Yes, yes, yes," the old man said. "Only he died, so what does it matter? You say you want to cross the
river?"
"We do.,'
"Well, you can't!" Lord Walder announced crisply. "Not unless I allow it, and why should I? The Tullys
and the Starks have never been friends of mine." He pushed himself back in his chair and crossed his
arms, smirking, waiting for her answer.
The rest was only haggling.
A swollen red sun hung low against the western hills when the gates of the castle opened. The
drawbridge creaked down, the portcullis winched up, and Lady Catelyn Stark rode forth to rejoin her
son and his lords bannermen. Behind her came Ser Jared Frey, Ser Hosteen Frey, Ser Danwell Frey,
and Lord Walder's bastard son Ronel Rivers, leading a long column of pikemen, rank on rank of shuffling
men in blue steel ringmail and silvery grey cloaks.
Robb galloped out to meet her, with Grey Wind racing beside his stallion. "It's done," she told him.
"Lord Walder will grant you your crossing. His swords are yours as well, less four hundred he means to
keep back to hold the Twins. I suggest that you leave four hundred of your own, a mixed force of
archers and swordsmen. He can scarcely object to an offer to augment his garrison . . . but make certain
you give the command to a man you can trust. Lord Walder may need help keeping faith."


"As you say, Mother," Robb answered, gazing at the ranks of pikemen. "Perhaps . . . Ser Helman
Tallhart, do you think?"
"A fine choice."
"What . . . what did he want of us?"
"If you can spare a few of your swords, I need some men to escort two of Lord Frey's grandsons north
to Winterfell," she told him. "I have agreed to take them as wards. They are young boys, aged eight years
and seven. It would seem they are both named Walder. Your brother Bran will welcome the
companionship of lads near his own age, I should think."
"Is that all? Two fosterlings? That's a small enough price to-"
"Lord Frey's son Olyvar will be coming with us," she went on. "He is to serve as your personal squire.
His father would like to see him knighted, in good time."
"A squire." He shrugged. "Fine, that's fine, if he's-"
"Also, if your sister Arya is returned to us safely, it is agreed that she will marry Lord Walder's youngest
son, Elmar, when the two of them come of age."
Robb looked nonplussed. "Arya won't like that one bit."
"And you are to wed one of his daughters, once the fighting is done," she finished. "His lordship has
graciously consented to allow you to choose whichever girl you prefer. He has a number he thinks might
be suitable."
To his credit, Robb did not flinch. "I see."
"Do you consent?"
"Can I refuse?"
"Not if you wish to cross."
"I consent," Robb said solemnly. He had never seemed more manly to her than he did in that moment.
Boys might play with swords, but it took a lord to make a marriage pact, knowing what it meant.
They crossed at evenfall as a horned moon floated upon the river. The double column wound its way
through the gate of the eastern twin like a great steel snake, slithering across the courtyard, into the keep
and over the bridge, to issue forth once more from the second castle on the west bank.
Catelyn rode at the head of the serpent, with her son and her uncle Ser Brynden and Ser Stevron Frey.
Behind followed nine tenths of their horse; knights, lancers, freeriders, and mounted bowmen. It took
hours for them all to cross. Afterward, Catelyn would remember the clatter of countless hooves on the
drawbridge, the sight of Lord Walder Frey in his litter watching them pass, the glitter of eyes peering
down through the slats of the murder holes in the ceiling as they rode through the Water Tower.


The larger part of the northern host, pikes and archers and great masses of men-at-arms on foot,
remained upon the east bank under the command of Roose Bolton. Robb had commanded him to
continue the march south, to confront the huge Lannister army coming north under Lord Tywin.
For good or ill, her son had thrown the dice.
JON
Are you well, Snow?" Lord Mormont asked, scowling. "Well, " his raven squawked. "Well. "
"I am, my lord," Jon lied . . . loudly, as if that could make it true. "And you?"
Mormont frowned. "A dead man tried to kill me. How well could I be?" He scratched under his chin.
His shaggy grey beard had been singed in the fire, and he'd hacked it off. The pale stubble of his new
whiskers made him look old, disreputable, and grumpy. "You do not look well. How is your hand?"
"Healing." Jon flexed his bandaged fingers to show him. He had burned himself more badly than he knew
throwing the flaming drapes, and his right hand was swathed in silk halfway to the elbow. At the time he'd
felt nothing; the agony had come after. His cracked red skin oozed fluid, and fearsome blood blisters
rose between his fingers, big as roaches. "The maester says I'll have scars, but otherwise the hand should
be as good as it was before."
"A scarred hand is nothing. On the Wall, you'll be wearing gloves often as not."
"As you say, my lord." It was not the thought of scars that troubled Jon; it was the rest of it. Maester
Aemon had given him milk of the poppy, yet even so, the pain had been hideous. At first it had felt as if
his hand were still aflame, burning day and night. Only plunging it into
basins of snow and shaved ice gave any relief at all. Jon thanked the gods that no one but Ghost saw him
writhing on his bed, whimpering from the pain. And when at last he did sleep, he dreamt, and that was
even worse. In the dream, the corpse he fought had blue eyes, black hands, and his father's face, but he
dared not tell Mormont that.
"Dywen and Hake returned last night," the Old Bear said. "They found no sign of your uncle, no more
than the others did."
"I know." Jon had dragged himself to the common hall to sup with his friends, and the failure of the
rangers' search had been all the men had been talking of.
"You know," Mormont grumbled. "How is it that everyone knows everything around here?" He did not
seem to expect an answer. "It would seem there were only the two of . . . of those creatures, whatever
they were, I will not call them men. And thank the gods for that. Any more and . . . well, that doesn't
bear thinking of. There will be more, though. I can feel it in these old bones of mine, and Maester Aemon
agrees. The cold winds are rising. Summer is at an end, and a winter is coming such as this world has
never seen."


Winter is coming. The Stark words had never sounded so grim or ominous to Jon as they did now. "My
lord," he asked hesitantly, "it's said there was a bird last night
"There was. What of it?"
"I had hoped for some word of my father."
"Father, " taunted the old raven, bobbing its head as it walked across Mormont's shoulders. "Father. "
The Lord Commander reached up to pinch its beak shut, but the raven hopped up on his head, fluttered
its wings, and flew across the chamber to light above a window. "Grief and noise," Mormont grumbled.
"That's all they're good for, ravens. Why I put up with that pestilential bird . . . if there was news of Lord
Eddard, don't you think I would have sent for you? Bastard or no, you're still his blood. The message
concerned Ser Barristan Selmy. It seems he's been removed from the Kingsguard. They gave his place to
that black dog Clegane, and now Selmy's wanted for treason. The fools sent some watchmen to seize
him, but he slew two of them and escaped." Mormont snorted, leaving no doubt of his view of men
who'd send gold cloaks against a knight as renowed as Barristan the Bold. "We have white shadows in
the woods and unquiet dead stalking our halls, and a boy sits the Iron Throne," he said in disgust.
The raven laughed shrilly. "Boy, boy, boy, boy."
Ser Barristan had been the Old Bear's best hope, Jon remembered; if he had fallen, what chance was
there that Mormont's letter would be
heeded? He curled his hand into a fist. Pain shot through his burned fingers. "What of my sisters?"
"The message made no mention of Lord Eddard or the girls." He gave an irritated shrug. "Perhaps they
never got my letter. Aemon sent two copies, with his best birds, but who can say? More like, Pycelle did
not deign to reply. It would not be the first time, nor the last. I fear we count for less than nothing in
King's Landing. They tell us what they want us to know, and that's little enough."
And you tell me what you want me to know, and that's less, Jon thought resentfully. His brother Robb
had called the banners and ridden south to war, yet no word of that had been breathed to him . . . save
by Samwell Tarly, who'd read the letter to Maester Aemon and whispered its contents to Jon that night in
secret, all the time saying how he shouldn't. Doubtless they thought his brother's war was none of his
concern. It troubled him more than he could say. Robb was marching and he was not. No matter how
often Jon told himself that his place was here now, with his new brothers on the Wall, he still felt craven.
"Corn, " the raven was crying. "Corn, corn.
"Oh, be quiet," the Old Bear told it. "Snow, how soon does Maester Aemon say you'll have use of that
hand back?"
:, Soon," Jon replied.
'Good." On the table between them, Lord Mormont laid a large sword in a black metal scabbard
banded with silver. "Here. You'll be ready for this, then."
The raven flapped down and landed on the table, strutting toward the sword, head cocked curiously.


Jon hesitated. He had no inkling what this meant. "My lord?"
"The fire melted the silver off the pommel and burnt the crossguard and grip. Well, dry leather and old
wood, what could you expect? The blade, now . . . you'd need a fire a hundred times as hot to harm the
blade." Mormont shoved the scabbard across the rough oak planks. "I had the rest made anew. Take it."
"Take it, " echoed his raven, preening. "Take it, take it.
Awkwardly, Jon took the sword in hand. His left hand; his bandaged right was still too raw and clumsy.
Carefully he pulled it from its scabbard and raised it level with his eyes.
The pommel was a hunk of pale stone weighted with lead to balance the long blade. It had been carved
into the likeness of a snarling wolf's head, with chips of garnet set into the eyes. The grip was virgin
leather, soft and black, as yet unstained by sweat or blood. The blade itself was a good half foot longer
than those Jon was used to, tapered to thrust as
well as slash, with three fullers deeply incised in the metal. Where Ice was a true two-handed
greatsword, this was a hand-and-a-halfer, sometimes named a "bastard sword." Yet the wolf sword
actually seemed lighter than the blades he had wielded before. When Jon turned it sideways, he could see
the ripples in the dark steel where the metal had been folded back on itself again and again. "This is
Valyrian steel, my lord," he said wonderingly. His father had let him handle Ice often enough; he knew the
look, the feel.
"It is," the Old Bear told him. "It was my father's sword, and his father's before him. The Mormonts have
carried it for five centuries. I wielded it in my day and passed it on to my son when I took the black."
He is giving me his son's sword. Jon could scarcely believe it. The blade was exquisitely balanced. The
edges glimmered faintly as they kissed the light. "Your son-"
"My son brought dishonor to House Mormont, but at least he had the grace to leave the sword behind
when he fled. My sister returned it to my keeping, but the very sight of it reminded me of Jorah's shame,
so I put it aside and thought no more of it until we found it in the ashes of my bedchamber. The original
pommel was a bear's head, silver, yet so worn its features were all but indistinguishable. For you, I
thought a white wolf more apt. One of our builders is a fair stonecarver."
When Jon had been Bran's age, he had dreamed of doing great deeds, as boys always did. The details
of his feats changed with every dreaming, but quite often he imagined saving his father's life. Afterward
Lord Eddard would declare that Jon had proved himself a true Stark, and place Ice in his hand. Even
then he had known it was only a child's folly; no bastard could ever hope to wield a father's sword. Even
the memory shamed him. What kind of man stole his own brother's birthright? I have no right to this, he
thought, no more than to ke. He twitched his burned fingers, feeling a throb of pain deep under the skin.
"My lord, you honor me, but-"
"Spare me your but's, boy," Lord Mormont interrupted. "I would not be sitting here were it not for you
and that beast of yours. You fought bravely . . . and more to the point, you thought quickly. Fire! Yes,
damn it. We ought to have known. We ought to have remembered. The Long Night has come before.
Oh, eight thousand years is a good while, to be sure . . . yet if the Night's Watch does not remember,
who will?"


"Who will, " chimed the talkative raven. ""o will.
Truly, the gods had heard Jon's prayer that night; the fire had caught in the dead man's clothing and
consumed him as if his flesh were candle wax and his bones old dry wood. Jon had only to close his
eyes to see the thing staggering across the solar, crashing against the furniture and flailing at the flames. It
was the face that haunted him most; surrounded by a nimbus of fire, hair blazing like straw, the dead flesh
melting away and sloughing off its skull to reveal the gleam of bone beneath.
Whatever demonic force moved Othor had been driven out by the flames; the twisted thing they had
found in the ashes had been no more than cooked meat and charred bone. Yet in his nightmare he faced
it again . . . and this time the burning corpse wore Lord Eddard's features. It was his father's skin that
burst and blackened, his father's eyes that ran liquid down his cheeks like jellied tears. Jon did not
understand why that should be or what it might mean, but it frightened him more than he could say.
"A sword's small payment for a life," Mormont concluded. "Take it, I'll hear no more of it, is that
understood?"
"Yes, my lord." The soft leather gave beneath Jon's fingers, as if the sword were molding itself to his grip
already. He knew he should be honored, and he was, and yet . . .
He is not my father. The thought leapt unbidden to Jon's mind. Lord Eddard Stark is my father. I will not
forget him, no matter how many swords they give me. Yet he could scarcely tell Lord Mormont that it
was another man's sword he dreamt of . . .
"I want no courtesies either," Mormont said, "so thank me no thanks. Honor the steel with deeds, not
words."
Jon nodded. "Does it have a name, my lord?"
"It did, once. Longclaw, it was called."
"Claw, " the raven cried. "Claw. "
"Longclaw is an apt name." Jon tried a practice cut. He was clumsy and uncomfortable with his left hand,
yet even so the steel seemed to flow through the air, as if it had a will of its own. "Wolves have claws, as
much as bears."
The Old Bear seemed pleased by that. "I suppose they do. You'll want to wear that over the shoulder, I
imagine. It's too long for the hip, at least until you've put on a few inches. And you'll need to work at your
two-handed strikes as well. Ser Endrew can show you some moves, when your burns have healed."
"Ser Endrew?" Jon did not know the name.
"Ser Endrew Tarth, a good man. He's on his way from the Shadow Tower to assume the duties of
master-at-arms. Ser Alliser Thorne left yestermorn for Eastwatch-by-the-Sea."
Jon lowered the sword. "Why?" he said, stupidly.


Mormont snorted. "Because I sent him, why do you think? He's
bringing the hand your Ghost tore off the end of Jafer Flowers's wrist. I have commanded him to take
ship to King's Landing and lay it before this boy king. That should get young Joffrey's attention, I'd think .
. . and Ser Alliser's a knight, highborn, anointed, with old friends at court, altogether harder to ignore than
a glorified crow."
"Crow. " Jon thought the raven sounded faintly indignant.
"As well," the Lord Commander continued, ignoring the bird's protest, "it puts a thousand leagues twixt
him and you without it seeming a rebuke." He jabbed a finger up at Jon's face. "And don't think this
means I approve of that nonsense in the common hall. Valor makes up for a fair amount of folly, but
you're not a boy anymore, however many years you've seen. That's a man's sword you have there, and it
will take a man to wield her. I'll expect you to act the part, henceforth."
"Yes, my lord." Jon slid the sword back into the silver-banded scabbard. If not the blade he would have
chosen, it was nonetheless a noble gift, and freeing him from Alliser Thorne's malignance was nobler still.
The Old Bear scratched at his chin. "I had forgotten how much a new beard itches," he said. "Well, no
help for that. Is that hand of yours healed enough to resume your duties?"
"Yes, my lord."
"Good. The night will be cold, I'll want hot spice wine. Find me a flagon of red, not too sour, and don't
skimp on the spices. And tell Hobb that if he sends me boiled mutton again I'm like to boil him. That last
haunch was grey. Even the bird wouldn't touch it." He stroked the raven's head with his thumb, and the
bird made a contented quorking sound. "Away with you. I've work to do."
The guards smiled at him from their niches as he wound his way down the turret stair, carrying the sword
in his good hand. "Sweet steel," one man said. "You earned that, Snow," another told him. Jon made
himself smile back at them, but his heart was not in it. He knew he should be pleased, yet he did not feel
it. His hand ached, and the taste of anger was in his mouth, though he could not have said who he was
angry with or why.
A half dozen of his friends were lurking outside when he left the King's Tower, where Lord Commander
Mormont now made his residence. They'd hung a target on the granary doors, so they could seem to be
honing their skills as archers, but he knew lurkers when he saw them. No sooner did he emerge than Pyp
called out, "Well, come about, let's have a look."
"At what?" Jon said.
Toad sidled close. "Your rosy butt cheeks, what else?"
"The sword," Grenn stated. "We want to see the sword."
Jon raked them with an accusing look. "You knew."


Pyp grinned. "We're not all as dumb as Grenn."
"You are so," insisted Grenn. "You're dumber."
Halder gave an apologetic shrug. "I helped Pate carve the stone for the pommel," the builder said, "and
your friend Sam bought the garnets in Mole's Town."
"We knew even before that, though," Grenn said. "Rudge has been helping Donal Noye in the forge. He
was there when the Old Bear brought him the burnt blade."
"The sword!" Matt insisted. The others took up the chant. "The sword, the sword, the sword."
Jon unsheathed Longclaw and showed it to them, turning it this way and that so they could admire it. The
bastard blade glittered in the pale sunlight, dark and deadly. "Valyrian steel," he declared solemnly, trying
to sound as pleased and proud as he ought to have felt.
"I heard of a man who had a razor made of Valyrian steel," declared Toad. "He cut his head off trying to
shave."
Pyp grinned. "The Night's Watch is thousands of years old," he said, "but I'll wager Lord Snow's the first
brother ever honored for burning down the Lord Commander's Tower."
The others laughed, and even Jon had to smile. The fire he'd started had not, in truth, burned down that
formidable stone tower, but it had done a fair job of gutting the interior of the top two floors, where the
Old Bear had his chambers. No one seemed to mind that very much, since it had also destroyed Othor's
murderous corpse.
The other wight, the one-handed thing that had once been a ranger named Jafer Flowers, had also been
destroyed, cut near to pieces by a dozen swords . . . but not before it had slain Ser Jaremy Rykker and
four other men. Ser Jaremy had finished the job of hacking its head off, yet had died all the same when
the headless corpse pulled his own dagger from its sheath and buried it in his bowels. Strength and
courage did not avail much against foemen who would not fall because they were already dead; even
arms and armor offered small protection.
That grim thought soured Jon's fragile mood. "I need to see Hobb about the Old Bear's supper," he
announced brusquely, sliding Longclaw back into its scabbard. His friends meant well, but they did not
understand. It was not their fault, truly; they had not had to face Othor, they had not seen the pale glow
of those dead blue eyes, had not felt the cold of those dead black fingers. Nor did they know of the
fighting in the riverlands. How could they hope to comprehend? He turned away from them abruptly and
strode off, sullen. Pyp called after him, but Jon paid him no mind.
They had moved him back to his old cell in tumbledown Hardin's Tower after the fire, and it was there
he returned. Ghost was curled up asleep beside the door, but he lifted his head at the sound of Jon's
boots. The direwolf's red eyes were darker than garnets and wiser than men. Jon knelt, scratched his ear,
and showed him the pommel of the sword. "Look. It's you."
Ghost sniffed at his carved stone likeness and tried a lick. Jon smiled. "You're the one deserves an
honor," he told the wolf . . . and suddenly he found himself remembering how he'd found him, that day in
the late summer snow. They had been riding off with the other pups, but Jon had heard a noise and


turned back, and there he was, white fur almost invisible against the drifts. He was all alone, he thought,
apart from the others in the litter. He was different, so they drove him out.
"Jon?" He looked up. Samwell Tarly stood rocking nervously on his heels. His cheeks were red, and he
was wrapped in a heavy fur cloak that made him look ready for hibernation.
"Sam." Jon stood. "What is it? Do you want to see the sword?" If the others had known, no doubt Sam
did too.
The fat boy shook his head. "I was heir to my father's blade once," he said mournfully. "Heartsbane.
Lord Randyll let me hold it a few times, but it always scared me. It was Valyrian steel, beautiful but so
sharp I was afraid I'd hurt one of my sisters. Dickon will have it now." He wiped sweaty hands on his
cloak. "I ah . . . Maester Aemon wants to see you."
It was not time for his bandages to be changed. Jon frowned suspiciously. "Why?" he demanded. Sam
looked miserable. That was answer enough. "You told him, didn't you?" Jon said angrily. "You told him
that you told me."
"I . . . he . . . Jon, I didn't want to . . . he asked . . . I mean I think he knew, he sees things no one else
sees . . ."
"He's blind," Jon pointed out forcefully, disgusted. "I can find the way myself." He left Sam standing
there, openmouthed and quivering.
He found Maester Aemon up in the rookery, feeding the ravens. Clydas was with him, carrying a bucket
of chopped meat as they shuffled from cage to cage. "Sam said you wanted me?"
The maester nodded. "I did indeed. Clydas, give Jon the bucket. Perhaps he will be kind enough to
assist me." The hunched, pink-eyed brother handed Jon the bucket and scurried down the ladder. "Toss
the meat into the cages," Aemon instructed him. "The birds will do the rest. "
Jon shifted the bucket to his right hand and thrust his left down into the bloody bits. The ravens began to
scream noisily and fly at the bars,
beating at the metal with night-black wings. The meat had been chopped into pieces no larger than a
finger joint. He filled his fist and tossed the raw red morsels into the cage, and the squawking and
squabbling grew hotter. Feathers flew as two of the larger birds fought over a choice piece. Quickly Jon
grabbed a second handful and threw it in after the first. "Lord Mormont's raven likes fruit and corn."
"He is a rare bird," the maester said. "Most ravens will eat grain, but they prefer flesh. It makes them
strong, and I fear they relish the taste of blood. In that they are like men . . . and like men, not all ravens
are alike."
Jon had nothing to say to that. He threw meat, wondering why he'd been summoned. No doubt the old
man would tell him, in his own good time. Maester Aemon was not a man to be hurried.
"Doves and pigeons can also be trained to carry messages," the maester went on, "though the raven is a
stronger flyer, larger, bolder, far more clever, better able to defend itself against hawks . . . yet ravens are
black, and they eat the dead, so some godly men abhor them. Baelor the Blessed tried to replace all the


ravens with doves, did you know?" The maester turned his white eyes on Jon, smiling. "The Night's
Watch prefers ravens."
Jon's fingers were in the bucket, blood up to the wrist. "Dywen says the wildlings call us crows," he said
uncertainty.
"The crow is the raven's poor cousin. They are both beggars in black, hated and misunderstood."
Jon wished he understood what they were talking about, and why. What did he care about ravens and
doves? If the old man had something to say to him, why couldn't he just say it?
"Jon, did you ever wonder why the men of the Night's Watch take no wives and father no children?"
Maester Aemon asked.
Jon shrugged. "No." He scattered more meat. The fingers of his left hand were slimy with blood, and his
right throbbed from the weight of the bucket.
"So they will not love," the old man answered, "for love is the bane of honor, the death of duty."
That did not sound right to Jon, yet he said nothing. The maester was a hundred years old, and a high
officer of the Night's Watch; it was not his place to contradict him.
The old man seemed to sense his doubts. "Tell me, Jon, if the day should ever come when your lord
father must needs choose between honor on the one hand and those he loves on the other, what would
he do?"
Jon hesitated. He wanted to say that Lord Eddard would never
dishonor himself, not even for love, yet inside a small sly voice whispered, He fathered a bastard, where
was the honor in that? And your mother, what of his duty to her, he will not even say her name. "He
would do whatever was right," he said . . . ringingly, to make up for his hesitation. "No matter what."
"Then Lord Eddard is a man in ten thousand. Most of us are not so strong. What is honor compared to
a woman's love? What is duty against the feel of a newborn son in your arms . . . or the memory of a
brother's smile? Wind and words. Wind and words. We are only human, and the gods have fashioned us
for love. That is our great glory, and our great tragedy.
"The men who formed the Night's Watch knew that only their courage shielded the realm from the
darkness to the north. They knew they must have no divided loyalties to weaken their resolve. So they
vowed they would have no wives nor children.
"Yet brothers they had, and sisters. Mothers who gave them birth, fathers who gave them names. They
came from a hundred quarrelsome kingdoms, and they knew times may change, but men do not. So they
pledged as well that the Night's Watch would take no part in the battles of the realms it guarded.
"They kept their pledge. When Aegon slew Black Harren and claimed his kingdom, Harren's brother
was Lord Commander on the Wall, with ten thousand swords to hand. He did not march. In the days
when the Seven Mngdoms were seven kingdoms, not a generation passed that three or four of them
were not at war. The Watch took no part. When the Andals crossed the narrow sea and swept away the


kingdoms of the First Men, the sons of the fallen kings held true to their vows and remained at their
posts. So it has always been, for years beyond counting. Such is the price of honor.
"A craven can be as brave as any man, when there is nothing to fear. And we all do our duty, when
there is no cost to it. How easy it seems then, to walk the path of honor. Yet soon or late in every man's
life comes a day when it is not easy, a day when he must choose."
Some of the ravens were still eating, long stringy bits of meat dangling from their beaks. The rest seemed
to be watching him. Jon could feel the weight of all those tiny black eyes. "And this is my day . . . is that
what you're saying?"
Maester Aemon turned his head and looked at him with those dead white eyes. It was as if he were
seeing right into his heart. Jon felt naked and exposed. He took the bucket in both hands and flung the
rest of the slops through the bars. Strings of meat and blood flew everywhere, scattering the ravens. They
took to the air, shrieking
wildly. The quicker birds snatched morsels on the wing and gulped them down greedily. Jon let the
empty bucket clang to the floor.
The old man laid a withered, spotted hand on his shoulder. "It hurts, boy," he said softly. "Oh, yes.
Choosing . . . it has always hurt. And always will. I know."
"You don't know," Jon said bitterly. "No one knows. Even if I am his bastard, he's still my father . . ."
Maester Aemon sighed. "Have you heard nothing I've told you, Jon? Do you think you are the first?" He
shook his ancient head, a gesture weary beyond words. "Three times the gods saw fit to test my vows.
Once when I was a boy, once in the fullness of my manhood, and once when I had grown old. By then
my strength was fled, my eyes grown dim, yet that last choice was as cruel as the first. My ravens would
bring the news from the south, words darker than their wings, the ruin of my House, the death of my kin,
disgrace and desolation. What could I have done, old, blind, frail? I was helpless as a suckling babe, yet
still it grieved me to sit forgotten as they cut down my brother's poor grandson, and his son, and even the
little children . . ."
Jon was shocked to see the shine of tears in the old man's eyes. "Who are you?" he asked quietly,
almost in dread.
A toothless smile quivered on the ancient lips. "Only a maester of the Citadel, bound in service to Castle
Black and the Night's Watch. In my order, we put aside our house names when we take our vows and
don the collar." The old man touched the maester's chain that hung loosely around his thin, fleshless neck.
"My father was Maekar, the First of his Name, and my brother Aegon reigned after him in my stead. My
grandfather named me for Prince Aemon the Dragonknight, who was his uncle, or his father, depending
on which tale you believe. Aemon, he called me . . ."
"Aemon . . . Targaryen?" Jon could scarcely believe it.
"Once," the old man said. "Once. So you see, Jon, I do know . . . and knowing, I will not tell you stay or
go. You must make that choice yourself, and live with it all the rest of your days. As I have." His voice
fell to a whisper. "As I have . . ."


DAENERYS
When the battle was done, Dany rode her silver through the fields of the dead. Her handmaids and the
men of her khas came after, smiling and jesting among themselves.
Dothraki hooves had torn the earth and trampled the rye and lentils into the ground, while arakhs and
arrows had sown a terrible new crop and watered it with blood. Dying horses lifted their heads and
screamed at her as she rode past. Wounded men moaned and prayed. Jaqqa rhan moved among them,
the mercy men with their heavy axes, taking a harvest of heads from the dead and dying alike. After them
would scurry a flock of small girls, pulling arrows from the corpses to fill their baskets. Last of all the
dogs would come sniffing, lean and hungry, the feral pack that was never far behind the khalasar.
The sheep had been dead longest. There seemed to be thousands of them, black with flies, arrow shafts
bristling from each carcass. Khal Ogo's riders had done that, Dany knew; no man of Drogo's khalasar
would be such a fool as to waste his arrows on sheep when there were shepherds yet to kill.
The town was afire, black plumes of smoke roiling and tumbling as they rose into a hard blue sky.
Beneath broken walls of dried mud, riders galloped back and forth, swinging their long whips as they
herded the survivors from the smoking rubble. The women and chil
dren of Ogo's khalasar walked with a sullen pride, even in defeat and bondage; they were slaves now,
but they seemed not to fear it. It was different with the townsfolk. Dany pitied them; she remembered
what terror felt like. Mothers stumbled along with blank, dead faces, pulling sobbing children by the
hand. There were only a few men among them, cripples and cowards and grandfathers.
Ser Jorah said the people of this country named themselves the Lhazareen, but the Dothraki called them
haesh rakhi, the Lamb Men. Once Dany might have taken them for Dothraki, for they had the same
copper skin and almond-shaped eyes. Now they looked alien to her, squat and flat-faced, their black
hair cropped unnaturally short. They were herders of sheep and eaters of vegetables, and Khal Drogo
said they belonged south of the river bend. The grass of the Dothraki sea was not meant for sheep.
Dany saw one boy bolt and run for the river. A rider cut him off and turned him, and the others boxed
him in, cracking their whips in his face, running him this way and that. One galloped behind him, lashing
him across the buttocks until his thighs ran red with blood. Another snared his ankle with a lash and sent
him sprawling. Finally, when the boy could only crawl, they grew bored of the sport and put an arrow
through his back.
Ser Jorah met her outside the shattered gate. He wore a dark green surcoat over his mail. His gauntlets,
greaves, and greathelm were dark grey steel. The Dothraki had mocked him for a coward when he
donned his armor, but the knight had spit insults right back in their teeth, tempers had flared, longsword
had clashed with arakh, and the rider whose taunts had been loudest had been left behind to bleed to
death.
Ser Jorah lifted the visor of his flat-topped greathelm as he rode up. "Your lord husband awaits you
within the town."
"Drogo took no harm?"


"A few cuts," Ser Jorah answered, "nothing of consequence. He slew two khals this day. Khal Ogo first,
and then the son, Fogo, who became khal when Ogo fell. His bloodriders cut the bells from their hair,
and now Khal Drogo's every step rings louder than before."
Ogo and his son had shared the high bench with her lord husband at the naming feast where Viserys had
been crowned, but that was in Vaes Dothrak, beneath the Mother of Mountains, where every rider was
a brother and all quarrels were put aside. It was different out in the grass. Ogo's khalasar had been
attacking the town when Khal Drogo caught him. She wondered what the Lamb Men had thought, when
they first saw the dust of their horses from atop those crackedmud
walls. Perhaps a few, the younger and more foolish who still believed that the gods heard the
prayers of desperate men, took it for deliverance.
Across the road, a girl no older than Dany was sobbing in a high thin voice as a rider shoved her over a
pile of corpses, facedown, and thrust himself inside her. Other riders dismounted to take their turns. That
was the sort of deliverance the Dothraki brought the Lamb Men.
I am the blood of the dragon, Daenerys Targaryen reminded herself as she turned her face away. She
pressed her lips together and hardened her heart and rode on toward the gate.
"Most of Ogo's riders fled," Ser Jorah was saying. "Still, there may be as many as ten thousand
captives."
Slaves, Dany thought. Khal Drogo would drive them downriver to one of the towns on Slaver's Bay.
She wanted to cry, but she told herself that she must be strong. This is war, this is what it looks like, this
is the price of the Iron Throne.
"I've told the khal he ought to make for Meereen," Ser Jorah said. "They'll pay a better price than he'd
get from a slaving caravan. Illyrio writes that they had a plague last year, so the brothels are paying
double for healthy young girls, and triple for boys under ten. If enough children survive the journey, the
gold will buy us all the ships we need, and hire men to sail them."
Behind them, the girl being raped made a heartrending sound, a long sobbing wail that went on and on
and on. Dany's hand clenched hard around the reins, and she turned the silver's head. "Make them stop,"
she commanded Ser Jorah.
"Khaleesi?" The knight sounded perplexed.
"You heard my words," she said. "Stop them." She spoke to her khas in the harsh accents of Dothraki.
"Jhogo, Quaro, you will aid Ser Jorah. I want no rape."
The warriors exchanged a baffled look.
Jorah Mormont spurred his horse closer. "Princess," he said, "you have a gentle heart, but you do not
understand. This is how it has always been. Those men have shed blood for the khal. Now they claim
their reward."
Across the road, the girl was still crying, her high singsong tongue strange to Dany's ears. The first man


was done with her now, and a second had taken his place.
"She is a lamb girl," Quaro said in Dothraki. "She is nothing, Khaleesi. The riders do her honor. The
Lamb Men lay with sheep, it is known."
"It is known," her handmaid Irri echoed.
"It is known," agreed Jhogo, astride the tall grey stallion that Drogo had given him. "If her wailing offends
your ears, Khaleesi, Jhogo will bring you her tongue." He drew his arakh.
"I will not have her harmed," Dany said. "I claim her. Do as I command you, or Khal Drogo will know
the reason why."
'Ai, Khaleesi," Jhogo replied, kicking his horse. Quaro and the others followed his lead, the bells in their
hair chiming.
"Go with them," she commanded Ser Jorah.
"As you command." The knight gave her a curious look. "You are your brother's sister, in truth."
"Viserys?" She did not understand.
"No," he answered. "Rhaegar." He galloped off.
Dany heard Jhogo shout. The rapers laughed at him. One man shouted back. Jhogo's arakh flashed, and
the man's head went tumbling from his shoulders. Laughter turned to curses as the horsemen reached for
weapons, but by then Quaro and Aggo and Rakharo were there. She saw Aggo point across the road to
where she sat upon her silver. The riders looked at her with cold black eyes. One spat. The others
scattered to their mounts, muttering.
All the while the man atop the lamb girl continued to plunge in and out of her, so intent on his pleasure
that he seemed unaware of what was going on around him. Ser Jorah dismounted and wrenched him off
with a mailed hand. The Dothraki went sprawling in the mud, bounced up with a knife in hand, and died
with Aggo's arrow through his throat. Mormont pulled the girl off the pile of corpses and wrapped her in
his blood-spattered cloak. He led her across the road to Dany. "What do you want done with her?"
The girl was trembling, her eyes wide and vague. Her hair was matted with blood. "Doreah, see to her
hurts. You do not have a rider's look, perhaps she will not fear you. The rest, with me." She urged the
silver through the broken wooden gate.
It was worse inside the town. Many of the houses were afire, and the jaqqa rhan had been about their
grisly work. Headless corpses filled the narrow, twisty lanes. They passed other women being raped.
Each time Dany reined up, sent her khas to make an end to it, and claimed the victim as slave. One of
them, a thick-bodied, flat-nosed woman of forty years, blessed Dany haltingly in the Common Tongue,
but from the others she got only flat black stares. They were suspicious of her, she realized with sadness;
afraid that she had saved them for some worse fate.
"You cannot claim them all, child," Ser Jorah said, the fourth time


they stopped, while the warriors of her khas herded her new slaves behind her.
"I am khaleesi, heir to the Seven Kingdoms, the blood of the dragon," Dany reminded him. "It is not for
you to tell me what I cannot do." Across the city, a building collapsed in a great gout of fire and smoke,
and she heard distant screams and the wailing of frightened children.
They found Khal Drogo seated before a square windowless temple with thick mud walls and a bulbous
dome like some immense brown onion. Beside him was a pile of heads taller than he was. One of the
short arrows of the Lamb Men stuck through the meat of his upper arm, and blood covered the left side
of his bare chest like a splash of paint. His three bloodriders were with him.
Jhiqui helped Dany dismount; she had grown clumsy as her belly grew larger and heavier. She knelt
before the khaL "My sun-and-stars is wounded." The arakh cut was wide but shallow; his left nipple was
gone, and a flap of bloody flesh and skin dangled from his chest like a wet rag.
"Is scratch, moon of life, from arakh of one bloodrider to Khal Ogo," Khal Drogo said in the Common
Tongue. "I kill him for it, and Ogo too." He turned his head, the bells in his braid ringing softly. "Is Ogo
you hear, and Fogo his khalakka, who was khal when I slew him."
"No man can stand before the sun of my life," Dany said, "the father of the stallion who mounts the
world."
A mounted warrior rode up and vaulted from his saddle. He spoke to Haggo, a stream of angry
Dothraki too fast for Dany to understand. The huge bloodrider gave her a heavy look before he turned to
his khaL "This one is Mago, who rides in the khas of Ko Jhaqo. He says the khaleesi has taken his
spoils, a daughter of the lambs who was his to mount."
Khal Drogo's face was still and hard, but his black eyes were curious as they went to Dany. "Tell me the
truth of this, moon of my life," he commanded in Dothraki.
Dany told him what she had done, in his own tongue so the khal would understand her better, her words
simple and direct.
When she was done, Drogo was frowning. "This is the way of war. These women are our slaves now, to
do with as we please."
"It pleases me to hold them safe," Dany said, wondering if she had dared too much. "If your warriors
would mount these women, let them take them gently and keep them for wives. Give them places in the
khalasar and let them bear you sons."
Qotho was ever the cruelest of the bloodriders. It was he who laughed. "Does the horse breed with the
sheep?"
Something in his tone reminded her of Viserys. Dany turned on him angrily. "The dragon feeds on horse
and sheep alike."
Khal Drogo smiled. "See how fierce she grows!" he said. "It is my son inside her, the stallion who


mounts the world, filling her with his fire. Ride slowly, Ootho . . . if the mother does not burn you where
you sit, the son will trample you into the mud. And you, Mago, hold your tongue and find another lamb to
mount. These belong to my khaleesi." He started to reach out a hand to Daenerys, but as he lifted his arm
Drogo grimaced in sudden pain and turned his head.
Dany could almost feel his agony. The wounds were worse than Ser Jorah had led her to believe.
"Where are the healers?" she demanded. The khalasar had two sorts: barren women and eunuch slaves.
The herbwomen dealt in potions and spells, the eunuchs in knife, needle, and fire. "Why do they not
attend the khal?"
"The khal sent the hairless men away, Khaleesi," old Cohollo assured her. Dany saw the bloodrider had
taken a wound himself; a deep gash in his left shoulder.
"Many riders are hurt," Khal Drogo said stubbornly. "Let them be healed first. This arrow is no more
than the bite of a fly, this little cut only a new scar to boast of to my son."
Dany could see the muscles in his chest where the skin had been cut away. A trickle of blood ran from
the arrow that pierced his arm. "It is not for Khal Drogo to wait," she proclaimed. "Jhogo, seek out these
eunuchs and bring them here at once."
"Silver Lady," a woman's voice said behind her, "I can help the Great Rider with his hurts."
Dany turned her head. The speaker was one of the slaves she had claimed, the heavy, flat-nosed woman
who had blessed her.
"The khal needs no help from women who lie with sheep," barked Qotho. "Aggo, cut out her tongue."
Aggo grabbed her hair and pressed a knife to her throat.
Dany lifted a hand. "No. She is mine. Let her speak."
Aggo looked from her to Qotho. He lowered his knife.
"I meant no wrong, fierce riders." The woman spoke Dothraki well. The robes she wore had once been
the lightest and finest of woolens, rich with embroidery, but now they were mud-caked and bloody and
ripped. She clutched the torn cloth of her bodice to her heavy breasts. "I have some small skill in the
healing arts."
"Who are you?" Dany asked her.
"I am named Mirri Maz Duur. I am godswife of this temple."
"Maegi," grunted Haggo, fingering his arakh. His look was dark. Dany remembered the word from a
terrifying story that Jhiqui had told her one night by the cookfire. A maegi was a woman who lay with
demons and practiced the blackest of sorceries, a vile thing, evil and soulless, who came to men in the
dark of night and sucked life and strength from their bodies.
"I am a healer," Mirri Maz Duur said.


"A healer of sheeps," sneered Qotho. "Blood of my blood, I say kill this maegi and wait for the hairless
men."
Dany ignored the bloodrider's outburst. This old, homely, thickbodied woman did not look like a maegi
to her. "Where did you learn your healing, Mirri Maz Duur?"
"My mother was godswife before me, and taught me all the songs and spells most pleasing to the Great
Shepherd, and how to make the sacred smokes and ointments from leaf and root and berry. When I was
younger and more fair, I went in caravan to Asshai by the Shadow, to learn from their mages. Ships from
many lands come to Asshai, so I lingered long to study the healing ways of distant peoples. A moonsinger
of the Jogos Nhai gifted me with her birthing songs, a woman of your own riding people taught me the
magics of grass and corn and horse, and a maester from the Sunset Lands opened a body for me and
showed me all the secrets that hide beneath the skin."
Ser Jorah Mormont spoke up. "A maester?"
"Marwyn, he named himself," the woman replied in the Common Tongue. "From the sea. Beyond the
sea. The Seven Lands, he said. Sunset Lands. Where men are iron and dragons rule. He taught me this
speech."
"A maester in Asshai," Ser Jorah mused. "Tell me, Godswife, what did this Marwyn wear about his
neck?"
"A chain so tight it was like to choke him, Iron Lord, with links of many metals."
The knight looked at Dany. "Only a man trained in the Citadel of Oldtown wears such a chain," he said,
"and such men do know much of healing."
"Why should you want to help my khal?"
"All men are one flock, or so we are taught," replied Mirri Maz Duur. "The Great Shepherd sent me to
earth to heal his lambs, wherever I might find them."
Qotho gave her a stinging slap. "We are no sheep, maegi."
"Stop it," Dany said angrily. "She is mine. I will not have her harmed."
Khal Drogo grunted. "The arrow must come out, Qotho."
"Yes, Great Rider," Mirri Maz Duur answered, touching her bruised face. "And your breast must be
washed and sewn, lest the wound fester."
"Do it, then," Kbal Drogo commanded.
"Great Rider," the woman said, "my tools and potions are inside the god's house, where the healing
powers are strongest."
"I will carry you, blood of my blood," Haggo offered.


Khal Drogo waved him away. "I need no man's help," he said, in a voice proud and hard. He stood,
unaided, towering over them all. A fresh wave of blood ran down his breast, from where Ogo's arakh
had cut off his nipple. Dany moved quickly to his side. "I am no man," she whispered, "so you may lean
on me." Drogo put a huge hand on her shoulder. She took some of his weight as they walked toward the
great mud temple. The three bloodriders followed. Dany commanded Ser Jorah and the warriors of her
khas to guard the entrance and make certain no one set the building afire while they were still inside.
They passed through a series of anterooms, into the high central chamber under the onion. Faint light
shone down through hidden windows above. A few torches burnt smokily from sconces on the walls.
Sheepskins were scattered across the mud floor. "There," Mirri Maz Duur said, pointing to the altar, a
massive blue-veined stone carved with images of shepherds and their flocks. Khal Drogo lay upon it. The
old woman threw a handful of dried leaves onto a brazier, filling the chamber with fragrant smoke. "Best
if you wait outside," she told the rest of them.
"We are blood of his blood," Cohollo said. "Here we wait."
Qotho stepped close to Mirri Maz Duur. "Know this, wife of the Lamb God. Harm the khal and you
suffer the same." He drew his skinning knife and showed her the blade.
"She will do no harm." Dany felt she could trust this old, plainfaced woman with her flat nose; she had
saved her from the hard hands of her rapers, after all.
"If you must stay, then help," Mirri told the bloodriders. "The Great Rider is too strong for me. Hold him
still while I draw the arrow from his flesh." She let the rags of her gown fall to her waist as she opened a
carved chest, and busied herself with bottles and boxes, knives and needles. When she was ready, she
broke off the barbed arrowhead and pulled out the shaft, chanting in the singsong tongue of the
Lhazareen. She heated a flagon of wine to boiling on the brazier, and poured it over his wounds. Khal
Drogo cursed her, but he did not move. She bound the arrow wound with a plaster of wet leaves and
turned to the gash on his breast, smearing it with a pale green paste
before she pulled the flap of skin back in place. The khal ground his teeth together and swallowed a
scream. The godswife took out a silver needle and a bobbin of silk thread and began to close the flesh.
When she was done she painted the skin with red ointment, covered it with more leaves, and bound the
breast in a ragged piece of lambskin. "You must say the prayers I give you and keep the lambskin in
place for ten days and ten nights," she said. "There will be fever, and itching, and a great scar when the
healing is done."
Khal Drogo sat, bells ringing. "I sing of my scars, sheep woman." He flexed his arm and scowled.
"Drink neither wine nor the milk of the poppy," she cautioned him. "Pain you will have, but you must
keep your body strong to fight the poison spirits."
"I am khal," Drogo said. "I spit on pain and drink what I like. Cohollo, bring my vest." The older man
hastened off.
"Before," Dany said to the ugly Lhazareen woman, "I heard you speak of birthing songs . . ."
"I know every secret of the bloody bed, Silver Lady, nor have I ever lost a babe," Mirri Maz Duur
replied.


"My time is near," Dany said. "I would have you attend me when he comes, if you would."
Khal Drogo laughed. "Moon of my life, you do not ask a slave, you tell her. She will do as you
command." He jumped down from the altar. "Come, my blood. The stallions call, this place is ashes. It is
time to ride."
Haggo followed the khal from the temple, but Qotho lingered long enough to favor Mirri Maz Duur with
a stare. "Remember, maegi, as the khal fares, so shall you."
"As you say, rider," the woman answered him, gathering up her jars and bottles. "The Great Shepherd
guards the flock."
TYRION
0n a hill overlooking the kingsroad, a long trestle table of rough-hewn pine had been erected beneath an
elm tree and covered with a golden cloth. There, beside his pavilion, Lord Tywin took his evening meal
with his chief knights and lords bannermen, his great crimson-and-gold standard waving overhead from a
lofty pike.
Tyrion arrived late, saddlesore, and sour, all too vividly aware of how amusing he must look as he
waddled up the slope to his father. The day's march had been long and tiring. He thought he might get
quite drunk tonight. It was twilight, and the air was alive with drifting fireflies.
The cooks were serving the meat course: five suckling pigs, skin seared and crackling, a different fruit in
every mouth. The smell made his mouth water. "My pardons," he began, taking his place on the bench
beside his uncle.
"Perhaps I'd best charge you with burying our dead, Tyrion," Lord Tywin said. "If you are as late to
battle as you are to table, the fighting will all be done by the time you arrive."
"Oh, surely you can save me a peasant or two, Father," Tyrion replied. "Not too many, I wouldn't want
to be greedy." He filled his wine cup and watched a serving man carve into the pig. The crisp skin
crackled under his knife, and hot juice ran from the meat. It was the loveliest sight Tyrion had seen in
ages.
"Ser Addam's outriders say the Stark host has moved south from the Twins," his father reported as his
trencher was filled with slices of pork. "Lord Frey's levies have joined them. They are likely no more than
a day's march north of us."
"Please, Father," Tyrion said. "I'm about to eat."
"Does the thought of facing the Stark boy unman you, Tyrion? Your brother Jaime would be eager to
come to grips with him."
"I'd sooner come to grips with that pig. Robb Stark is not half so tender, and he never smelled as good."


Lord Lefford, the sour bird who had charge of their stores and supplies, leaned forward. "I hope your
savages do not share your reluctance, else we've wasted our good steel on them."
"My savages will put your steel to excellent use, my lord," Tyrion replied. When he had told Lefford he
needed arms and armor to equip the three hundred men Ulf had fetched down out of the foothills, you
would have thought he'd asked the man to turn his virgin daughters over to their pleasure.
Lord Lefford frowned. "I saw that great hairy one today, the one who insisted that he must have two
battle-axes, the heavy black steel ones with twin crescent blades."
"Shagga likes to kill with either hand," Tyrion said as a trencher of steaming pork was laid in front of him.
"He still had that wood-axe of his strapped to his back."
"Shagga is of the opinion that three axes are even better than two." Tyrion reached a thumb and
forefinger into the salt dish, and sprinkled a healthy pinch over his meat.
Ser Kevan leaned forward. "We had a thought to put you and your wildlings in the vanguard when we
come to battle."
Ser Kevan seldom "had a thought" that Lord Tywin had not had first. Tyrion had skewered a chunk of
meat on the point of his dagger and brought it to his mouth. Now he lowered it. "The vanguard?" he
repeated dubiously. Either his lord father had a new respect for Tyrion's abilities, or he'd decided to rid
himself of his embarrassing get for good. Tyrion had the gloomy feeling he knew which.
"They seem ferocious enough," Ser Kevan said.
"Ferocious?" Tyrion realized he was echoing his uncle like a trained bird. His father watched, judging
him, weighing every word. "Let me tell you how ferocious they are. Last night, a Moon Brother stabbed
a Stone Crow over a sausage. So today as we made camp three Stone Crows seized the man and
opened his throat for him. Perhaps they
were hoping to get the sausage back, I couldn't say. Bronn managed to keep Shagga from chopping off
the dead man's cock, which was fortunate, but even so Ulf is demanding blood money, which Conn and
Shagga refuse to pay."
"When soldiers lack discipline, the fault lies with their lord commander," his father said.
His brother Jaime had always been able to make men follow him eagerly, and die for him if need be.
Tyrion lacked that gift. He bought loyalty with gold, and compelled obedience with his name. "A bigger
man would be able to put the fear in them, is that what you're saying, my lord?"
Lord Tywin Lannister turned to his brother. "If my son's men will not obey his commands, perhaps the
vanguard is not the place for him. No doubt he would be more comfortable in the rear, guarding our
baggage train."
"Do me no kindnesses, Father," he said angrily. "If you have no other command to offer me, I'll lead
your van."


Lord Tywin studied his dwarf son. "I said nothing about command. You will serve under Ser Gregor."
Tyrion took one bite of pork, chewed a moment, and spit it out angrily. "I find I am not hungry after all,"
he said, climbing awkwardly off the bench. "Pray excuse me, my lords."
Lord Tywin inclined his head, dismissing him. Tyrion turned and walked away. He was conscious of
their eyes on his back as he waddled down the hill. A great gust of laughter went up from behind him, but
he did not look back. He hoped they all choked on their suckling pigs.
Dusk had settled, turning all the banners black. The Lannister camp sprawled for miles between the river
and the kingsroad. In amongst the men and the horses and the trees, it was easy to get lost, and `I~rion
did. He passed a dozen great pavilions and a hundred cookfires. Fireflies drifted amongst the tents like
wandering stars. He caught the scent of garlic sausage, spiced and savory, so tempting it made his empty
stomach growl. Away in the distance, he heard voices raised in some bawdy song. A giggling woman
raced past him, naked beneath a dark cloak, her drunken pursuer stumbling over tree roots. Farther on,
two spearmen faced each other across a little trickle of a stream, practicing their thrust- and-parry in the
fading light, their chests bare and slick with sweat.
No one looked at him. No one spoke to him. No one paid him any mind. He was surrounded by men
sworn to House Lannister, a vast host twenty thousand strong, and yet he was alone.
When he heard the deep rumble of Shagga's laughter booming
through the dark, he followed it to the Stone Crows in their small corner of the night. Conn son of Coratt
waved a tankard of ale. "Tyrion Halftnan! Come, sit by our fire, share meat with the Stone Crows. We
have an ox."
"I can see that, Conn son of Coratt." The huge red carcass was suspended over a roaring fire, skewered
on a spit the size of a small tree. No doubt it was a small tree. Blood and grease dripped down into the
flames as two Stone Crows turned the meat. "I thank you. Send for me when the ox is cooked." From
the look of it, that might even be before the battle. He walked on.
Each clan had its own cookfire; Black Ears did not eat with Stone Crows, Stone Crows did not eat with
Moon Brothers, and no one ate with Burned Men. The modest tent he had coaxed out of Lord Lefford's
stores had been erected in the center of the four fires. Tyrion found Bronn sharing a skin of wine with the
new servants. Lord Tywin had sent him a groom and a body servant to see to his needs, and even
insisted he take a squire. They were seated around the embers of a small cookfire. A girl was with them;
slim, dark-haired, no more than eighteen by the look of her. Tyrion studied her face for a moment, before
he spied fishbones in the ashes. "What did you eat?"
"Trout, m'lord," said his groom. "Bronn caught them."
Trout, he thought. Suckling pig. Damn my father. He stared mournfully at the bones, his belly rumbling.
His squire, a boy with the unfortunate name of Podrick Payne, swallowed whatever he had been about
to say. The lad was a distant cousin to Ser Ilyn Payne, the king's headsman . . . and almost as quiet,
although not for want of a tongue. Tyrion had made him stick it out once, just to be certain. "Definitely a
tongue," he had said. "Someday you must learn to use it."


At the moment, he did not have the patience to try and coax a thought out of the lad, whom he
suspected had been inflicted on him as a cruel jape. Tyrion turned his attention back to the girl. "Is this
her?" he asked Bronn.
She rose gracefully and looked down at him from the lofty height of five feet or more. "It is, m'lord, and
she can speak for herself, if it please you."
He cocked his head to one side. "I am Tyrion, of House Lannister. Men call me the Imp."
"My mother named me Shae. Men call me . . . often."
Bronn laughed, and Tyrion had to smile. "Into the tent, Shae, if you would be so kind." He lifted the flap
and held it for her. Inside, he knelt to light a candle.
The life of a soldier was not without certain compensations. Wherever you have a camp, you are certain
to have camp followers. At the end of the day's march, Tyrion had sent Bronn back to find him a likely
whore. "I would prefer one who is reasonably young, with as pretty a face as you can find," he had said.
"If she has washed sometime this year, I shall be glad. If she hasn't, wash her. Be certain that you tell her
who I am, and warn her of what I am." Jyck had not always troubled to do that. There was a look the
girls got in their eyes sometimes when they first beheld the lordling they'd been hired to pleasure . . . a
took that Tyrion Lannister did not ever care to see again.
He lifted the candle and looked her over. Bronn had done well enough; she was doe-eyed and slim, with
small firm breasts and a smile that was by turns shy, insolent, and wicked. He liked that. "Shall I take my
gown off, m'lord?" she asked.
"In good time. Are you a maiden, Shae?"
"If it please you, m'lord," she said demurely.
"What would please me would be the truth of you, girl."
"Aye, but that will cost you double."
Tyrion decided they would get along splendidly. "I am a Lannister. Gold I have in plenty, and you'll find
me generous . . . but I'll want more from you than what you've got between your legs, though I'll want
that too. You'll share my tent, pour my wine, laugh at my jests, rub the ache from my legs after each day's
ride . . . and whether I keep you a day or a year, for so long as we are together you will take no other
men into your bed."
"Fair enough." She reached down to the hem of her thin roughspun gown and pulled it up over her head
in one smooth motion, tossing it aside. There was nothing underneath but Shae. "If he don't put down that
candle, m1ord will burn his fingers."
Tyrion put down the candle, took her hand in his, and pulled her gently to him. She bent to kiss him. Her
mouth tasted of honey and cloves, and her fingers were deft and practiced as they found the fastenings of
his clothes.


When he entered her, she welcomed him with whispered endearments and small, shuddering gasps of
pleasure. Tyrion suspected her delight was feigned, but she did it so well that it did not matter. That much
truth he did not crave.
He had needed her, Tyrion realized afterward, as she lay quietly in his arms. Her or someone like her. It
had been nigh on a year since he'd lain with a woman, since before he had set out for Winterfell in
company with his brother and King Robert. He could well die on the morrow or the day after, and if he
did, he would sooner go to his grave
thinking of Shae than of his lord father, Lysa Arryn, or the Lady Catelyn Stark.
He could feel the softness of her breasts pressed against his arm as she lay beside him. That was a good
feeling. A song filled his head. Softly, quietly, he began to whistle.
"What's that, m'lord?" Shae murmured against him.
"Nothing," he told her. "A song I learned as a boy, that's all. Go to sleep, sweetling."
When her eyes were closed and her breathing deep and steady, Tyrion slid out from beneath her, gently,
so as not to disturb her sleep. Naked, he crawled outside, stepped over his squire, and walked around
behind his tent to make water.
Bronn was seated cross-legged under a chestnut tree, near where they'd tied the horses. He was honing
the edge of his sword, wide awake; the sellsword did not seem to sleep like other men. "Where did you
find her?" Tyrion asked him as he pissed.
"I took her from a knight. The man was loath to give her up, but your name changed his thinking
somewhat . . . that, and my dirk at his throat."
"Splendid," Tyrion said dryly, shaking off the last drops. "I seem to recall saying find me a whore, not
make me an enemy."
"The pretty ones were all claimed," Bronn said. "I'll be pleased to take her back if you'd prefer a
toothless drab."
Tyrion limped closer to where he sat. "My lord father would call that insolence, and send you to the
mines for impertinence."
"Good for me you're not your father," Bronn replied. "I saw one with boils all over her nose. Would you
like her?"
"What, and break your heart?" Tyrion shot back. "I shall keep Shae. Did you perchance note the name
of this knight you took her from? I'd rather not have him beside me in the battle."
Bronn rose, cat-quick and cat-graceful, turning his sword in his hand. "You'll have me beside you in the
battle, dwarf."
Tyrion nodded. The night air was warm on his bare skin. "See that I survive this battle, and you can
name your reward."


Bronn tossed the longsword from his right hand to his left, and tried a cut. "Who'd want to kill the likes
of you?"
"My lord father, for one. He's put me in the van."
"I'd do the same. A small man with a big shield. You'll give the archers fits."
"I find you oddly cheering," Tyrion said. "I must be mad."
Bronn sheathed his sword. "Beyond a doubt."
When Tyrion returned to his tent, Shae rolled onto her elbow and murmured sleepily, "I woke and
m'lord was gone."
"M'Iord is back now." He slid in beside her.
Her hand went between his stunted legs, and found him hard. "Yes he is," she whispered, stroking him.
He asked her about the man Bronn had taken her from, and she named the minor retainer of an
insignificant lordling. "You need not fear his like, m'lord," the girl said, her fingers busy at his cock. "He is
a small man."
"And what am 1, pray?" Tyrion asked her. "A giant?"
"Oh, yes," she purred, "my giant of Lannister." She mounted him then, and for a time, she almost made
him believe it. Tyrion went to sleep smiling . . .
* ' * and woke in darkness to the blare of trumpets. Shae was shaking him by the shoulder. "M'Iord,"
she whispered. "Wake up, m'lord. I'm frightened."
Groggy, he sat up and threw back the blanket. The horns called through the night, wild and urgent, a cry
that said huny huny huny. He heard shouts, the clatter of spears, the whicker of horses, though nothing
yet that spoke to him of fighting. "My lord father's trumpets," he said. "Battle assembly. I thought Stark
was yet a day's march away."
Shae shook her head, lost. Her eyes were wide and white.
Groaning, Tyrion lurched to his feet and pushed his way outside, shouting for his squire. Wisps of pale
fog drifted through the night, long white fingers off the river. Men and horses blundered through the
predawn chill; saddles were being cinched, wagons loaded, fires extinguished. The trumpets blew again:
huny huny huny. Knights vaulted onto snorting coursers while men-at-arms buckled their sword belts as
they ran. When he found Pod, the boy was snoring softly. Tyrion gave him a sharp poke in the ribs with
his toe. "My armor," he said, "and be quick about it." Bronn came trotting out of the mists, already
armored and ahorse, wearing his battered halfhelm. "Do you know what's happened?" Tyrion asked him.
"The Stark boy stole a march on us," Bronn said. "He crept down the kingsroad in the night, and now his
host is less than a mile north of here, forming up in battle array."


Huny, the trumpets called, huny huny huny.
"See that the clansmen are ready to ride." Tyrion ducked back inside his tent. "Where are my clothes?"
he barked at Shae. "There. No, the leather, damn it. Yes. Bring me my boots."
By the time he was dressed, his squire had laid out his armor, such that it was. Tyrion owned a fine suit
of heavy plate, expertly crafted to
fit his misshapen body. Alas, it was safe at Casterly Rock, and he was not. He had to make do with
oddments assembled from Lord Lefford's wagons: mail hauberk and coif, a dead knight's gorget,
lobstered greaves and gauntlets and pointed steel boots. Some of it was ornate, some plain; not a bit of it
matched, or fit as it should. His breastplate was meant for a bigger man; for his oversize head, they found
a huge bucket-shaped greathelm topped with a foot-long triangular spike.
Shae helped Pod with the buckles and clasps. "If I die, weep for me," Tyrion told the whore.
"How will you know? You'll be dead."
"I'll know."
"I believe you would." Shae lowered the greathelm down over his head, and Pod fastened it to his
gorget. Tyrion buckled on his belt, heavy with the weight of shortsword and dirk. By then his groom had
brought up his mount, a formidable brown courser armored as heavily as he was. He needed help to
mount; he felt as though he weighed a thousand stone. Pod handed him up his shield, a massive slab of
heavy ironwood banded with steel. Lastly they gave him his battle-axe. Shae stepped back and looked
him over. "NI'lord looks fearsome."
"NI'lord looks a dwarf in mismatched armor," Tyrion answered sourly, "but I thank you for the kindness.
Podrick, should the battle go against us, see the lady safely home." He saluted her with his axe, wheeled
his horse about, and trotted off. His stomach was a hard knot, so tight it pained him. Behind, his servants
hurriedly began to strike his tent. Pale crimson fingers fanned out to the east as the first rays of the sun
broke over the horizon. The western sky was a deep purple, speckled with stars. Tyrion wondered
whether this was the last sunrise he would ever see . . . and whether wondering was a mark of
cowardice. Did his brother Jaime ever contemplate death before a battle?
A warhorn sounded in the far distance, a deep mournful note that chilled the soul. The clansmen climbed
onto their scrawny mountain horses, shouting curses and rude jokes. Several appeared to be drunk. The
rising sun was burning off the drifting tendrils of fog as Tyrion led them off. What grass the horses had left
was heavy with dew, as if some passing god had scattered a bag of diamonds over the earth. The
mountain men fell in behind him, each clan arrayed behind its own leaders.
In the dawn light, the army of Lord Tywin Lannister unfolded like an iron rose, thorns gleaming.
His uncle would lead the center. Ser Kevan had raised his standards above the kingsroad. Quivers
hanging from their belts, the foot archers arrayed themselves into three long lines, to east and west of the
road,


and stood calmly stringing their bows. Between them, pikemen formed squares; behind were rank on
rank of men-at-arms with spear and sword and axe. Three hundred heavy horse surrounded Ser Kevan
and the lords bannermen Lefford, Lydden, and Serrett with all their sworn retainers.
The right wing was all cavalry, some four thousand men, heavy with the weight of their armor. More than
three quarters of the knights were there, massed together like a great steel fist. Ser Addam Marbrand
had the command. Tyrion saw his banner unfurl as his standardbearer shook it out; a burning tree, orange
and smoke. Behind him flew Ser Flement's purple unicorn, the brindled boar of Crakehall, the bantam
rooster of Swyft, and more.
His lord father took his place on the hill where he had slept. Around him, the reserve assembled; a huge
force, half mounted and half foot, five thousand strong. Lord Tywin almost always chose to command the
reserve; he would take the high ground and watch the battle unfold below him, committing his forces
when and where they were needed most.
Even from afar, his lord father was resplendent. Tywin Lannister's battle armor put his son Jaime's gilded
suit to shame. His greatcloak was sewn from countless layers of cloth-of-gold, so heavy that it barely
stirred even when he charged, so large that its drape covered most of his stallion's hindquarters when he
took the saddle. No ordinary clasp would suffice for such a weight, so the greatcloak was held in place
by a matched pair of miniature lionesses crouching on his shoulders, as if poised to spring. Their mate, a
male with a magnificent mane, reclined atop Lord Tywin's greathelm, one paw raking the air as he
roared. All three lions were wrought in gold, with ruby eyes. His armor was heavy steel plate, enameled
in a dark crimson, greaves and gauntlets inlaid with ornate gold scrollwork. His rondels were golden
sunbursts, all his fastenings were gilded, and the red steel was burnished to such a high sheen that it shone
like fire in the light of the rising sun.
Tyrion could hear the rumble of the foemen's drums now. He remembered Robb Stark as he had last
seen him, in his father's high seat in the Great Hall of Winterfell, a sword naked and shining in his hands.
He remembered how the direwolves had come at him out of the shadows, and suddenly he could see
them again, snarling and snapping, teeth bared in his face. Would the boy bring his wolves to war with
him? The thought made him uneasy.
The northerners would be exhausted after their long sleepless march. Tyrion wondered what the boy had
been thinking. Did he think
to take them unawares while they slept? Small chance of that; whatever else might be said of him, Tywin
Lannister was no man's fool.
The van was massing on the left. He saw the standard first, three black dogs on a yellow field. Ser
Gregor sat beneath it, mounted on the biggest horse Tyrion had ever seen. Bronn took one look at him
and grinned. "Always follow a big man into battle."
Tyrion threw him a hard look. "And why is that?"
"They make such splendid targets. That one, he'll draw the eyes of every bowman on the field."
Laughing, Tyrion regarded the Mountain with fresh eyes. "I confess, I had not considered it in that light."
Clegane had no splendor about him; his armor was steel plate, dull grey, scarred by hard use and


showing neither sigil nor ornament. He was pointing men into position with his blade, a two-handed
greatsword that Ser Gregor waved about with one hand as a lesser man might wave a dagger. "Any man
runs, I'll cut him down myself," he was roaring when he caught sight of Tyrion. "Imp! Take the left. Hold
the river. If you can."
The left of the left. To turn their flank, the Starks would need horses that could run on water. Tyrion led
his men toward the riverbank. "Look," he shouted, pointing with his axe. "The river." A blanket of pale
mist still clung to the surface of the water, the murky green current swirling past underneath. The shallows
were muddy and choked with reeds. "That river is ours. Whatever happens, keep close to the water.
Never lose sight of it. Let no enemy come between us and our river. If they dirty our waters, hack off
their cocks and feed them to the fishes."
Shagga had an axe in either hand. He smashed them together and made them ring. "Halfman!" he
shouted. Other Stone Crows picked up the cry, and the Black Ears and Moon Brothers as well. The
Burned Men did not shout, but they rattled their swords and spears. "Halfman! Ha Ifm a n! Ha 1fm a n! "
Tyrion turned his courser in a circle to look over the field. The ground was rolling and uneven here; soft
and muddy near the river, rising in a gentle slope toward the kingsroad, stony and broken beyond it, to
the cast. A few trees spotted the hillsides, but most of the land had been cleared and planted. His heart
pounded in his chest in time to the drums, and under his layers of leather and steel his brow was cold with
sweat. He watched Ser Gregor as the Mountain rode up and down the line, shouting and gesticulating.
This wing too was all cavalry, but where the right was a mailed fist of knights and heavy lancers, the
vanguard was made up of the sweepings of the west: mounted archers
in leather jerkins, a swarming mass of undisciplined freeriders and sellswords, fieldhands on plow horses
armed with scythes and their fathers' rusted swords, half-trained boys from the stews of Lannisport and
Tyrion and his mountain clansmen.
Crow food," Bronn muttered beside him, giving voice to what Tyrion had left unsaid. He could only nod.
Had his lord father taken leave of his senses? No pikes, too few bowmen, a bare handful of knights, the
ill-armed and unarmored, commanded by an unthinking brute who led with his rage . . . how could his
father expect this travesty of a battle to hold his left?
He had no time to think about it. The drums were so near that the beat crept under his skin and set his
hands to twitching. Bronn drew his longsword, and suddenly the enemy was there before them, boiling
over the tops of the hills, advancing with measured tread behind a wall of shields and pikes.
Gods be damned, look at them all, Tyrion thought, though he knew his father had more men on the field.
Their captains led them on armored warhorses, standard-bearers riding alongside with their banners. He
glimpsed the bull moose of the Hornwoods, the Karstark sunburst, Lord Cerwyn's battle-axe, and the
mailed fist of the Glovers . . . and the twin towers of Frey, blue on grey. So much for his father's certainty
that Lord Walder would not bestir himself. The white of House Stark was seen everywhere, the grey
direwolves seeming to run and leap as the banners swirled and streamed from the high staffs. "ere is the
boy? Tyrion wondered.
A warhorn blew. Haroooooooooooooooooooooooo, it cried, its voice as long and low and chilling as a
cold wind from the north. The Lannister trumpets answered, da-DA da-DA da-DAAAAAAAAA,
brazen and defiant, yet it seemed to Tyrion that they sounded somehow smaller, more anxious. He could
feel a fluttering in his bowels, a queasy liquid feeling; he hoped he was not going to die sick.


As the horns died away, a hissing filled the air; a vast flight of arrows arched up from his right, where the
archers stood flanking the road. The northerners broke into a run, shouting as they came, but the
Lannister arrows fell on them like hail, hundreds of arrows, thousands, and shouts turned to screams as
men stumbled and went down. By then a second flight was in the air, and the archers were fitting a third
arrow to their bowstrings.
The trumpets blared again, da-DAAA da-DAAA da-DA da-DA daDAAAAAAA. Ser Gregor waved
his huge sword and bellowed a command, and a thousand other voices screamed back at him. Tyrion put
his spurs to his horse and added one more voice to the cacophony, and
the van surged forward. "The river!" he shouted at his clansmen as they rode. "Remember, hew to the
river." He was still leading when they broke a canter, until Chella gave a bloodcurdling shriek and
galloped past him, and Shagga howled and followed. The clansmen charged after them, leaving Tyrion in
their dust.
A crescent of enemy spearmen had formed ahead, a double hedgehog bristling with steel, waiting behind
tall oaken shields marked with the sunburst of Karstark. Gregor Clegane was the first to reach them,
leading a wedge of armored veterans. Half the horses shied at the last second, breaking their charge
before the row of spears. The others died, sharp steel points ripping through their chests. Tyrion saw a
dozen men go down. The Mountain's stallion reared, lashing out with iron-shod hooves as a barbed
spearhead raked across his neck. Maddened, the beast lunged into the ranks. Spears thrust at him from
every side, but the shield wall broke beneath his weight. The northerners stumbled away from the
animal's death throes. As his horse fell, snorting blood and biting with his last red breath, the Mountain
rose untouched, laying about him with his two-handed greatsword.
Shagga went bursting through the gap before the shields could close, other Stone Crows hard behind
him. Tyrion shouted, "Burned Men! Moon Brothers! After me!" but most of them were ahead of him. He
glimpsed Timett son of Timett vault free as his mount died under him in full stride, saw a Moon Brother
impaled on a Karstark spear, watched Conn's horse shatter a man's ribs with a kick. A flight of arrows
descended on them; where they came from he could not say, but they fell on Stark and Lannister alike,
rattling off armor or finding flesh. Tyrion lifted his shield and hid beneath it.
The hedgehog was crumbling, the northerners reeling back under the impact of the mounted assault.
Tyrion saw Shagga catch a spearman full in the chest as the fool came on at a run, saw his axe shear
through mail and leather and muscle and lungs. The man was dead on his feet, the axehead lodged in his
breast, yet Shagga rode on, cleaving a shield in two with his left-hand battle-axe while the corpse was
bouncing and stumbling bonelessly along on his right. Finally the dead man slid off. Shagga smashed the
two axes together and roared.
By then the enemy was on him, and Tyrion's battle shrunk to the few feet of ground around his horse. A
man-at-arms thrust at his chest and his axe lashed out, knocking the spear aside. The man danced back
for another try, but Tyrion spurred his horse and rode right over him. Bronn was surrounded by three
foes, but he lopped the head off the first spear that came at him, and raked his blade across a second
man's face on his backslash.
A thrown spear came hurtling at Tyrion from the left and lodged in his shield with a woody chunk. He


wheeled and raced after the thrower, but the man raised his own shield over his head. Tyrion circled
around him, raining axe blows down on the wood. Chips of oak went flying, until the northerner lost his
feet and slipped, failing flat on his back with his shield on top of him. He was below the reach of Tyrion's
axe and it was too much bother to dismount, so he left him there and rode after another man, taking him
from behind with a sweeping downcut that sent a jolt of impact up his arm. That won him a moment's
respite. Reining up, he looked for the river. There it was, off to the right. Somehow he had gotten turned
around.
A Burned Man rode past, slumped against his horse. A spear had entered his belly and come out
through his back. He was past any help, but when Tyrion saw one of the northerners run up and make a
grab for his reins, he charged.
His quarry met him sword in hand. He was tall and spare, wearing a long chainmail hauberk and
gauntlets of lobstered steel, but he'd lost his helm and blood ran down into his eyes from a gash across
his forehead. Tyrion aimed a swipe at his face, but the tall man slammed it aside. "Dwarf," he screamed.
"Die." He turned in a circle as Tyrion rode around him, hacking at his head and shoulders. Steel rang on
steel, and Tyrion soon realized that the tall man was quicker and stronger than he was. Where in the
seven hells was Bronn? "Die," the man grunted, chopping at him savagely. Tyrion barely got his shield up
in time, and the wood seemed to explode inward under the force of the blow. The shattered pieces fell
away from his arm. "Die!" the swordsman bellowed, shoving in close and whanging Tyrion across the
temple so hard his head rang. The blade made a hideous scraping sound as he drew it back over the
steel. The tall man grinned . . . until Tyrion's destrier bit, quick as a snake, laying his cheek bare to the
bone. Then he screamed. Tyrion buried his axe in his head. "You die," he told him, and he did.
As he wrenched the blade free, he heard a shout. 'Eddard!" a voice rang out. "For Eddard and
Winterfell!" The knight came thundering down on him, swinging the spiked ball of a morningstar around
his head. Their warhorses slammed together before Tyrion could so much as open his mouth to shout for
Bronn. His right elbow exploded with pain as the spikes punched through the thin metal around the joint.
His axe was gone, as fast as that. He clawed for his sword, but the morningstar was circling again,
coming at his face. A sickening crunch, and he was falling. He did not recall hitting the ground, but when
he looked up there was only sky above him. He rolled onto his side and
tried to find his feet, but pain shuddered through him and the world throbbed. The knight who had felled
him drew up above him. "Tyrion the Imp," he boomed down. "You are mine. Do you yield, Lannister?"
Yes, Tyrion thought, but the word caught in his throat. He made a croaking sound and fought his way to
his knees, fumbling for a weapon. His sword, his dirk, anything . . .
"Do you yield?" The knight loomed overhead on his armored warhorse. Man and horse both seemed
immense. The spiked ball swung in a lazy circle. Tyrion's hands were numb, his vision blurred, his
scabbard empty. "Yield or die," the knight declared, his flail whirling faster and faster.
Tyrion lurched to his feet, driving his head into the horse's belly. The animal gave a hideous scream and
reared. It tried to twist away from the agony, a shower of blood and viscera poured down over Tyrion's
face, and the horse fell like an avalanche. The next he knew, his visor was packed with mud and
something was crushing his foot. He wriggled free, his throat so tight he could scarce talk.
. . yield . . ." he managed to croak faintly.


"Yes," a voice moaned, thick with pain.
Tyrion scraped the mud off his helm so he could see again. The horse had fallen away from him, onto its
rider. The knight's leg was trapped, the arm he'd used to break his fall twisted at a grotesque angle.
"Yield," he repeated. Fumbling at his belt with his good hand, he drew a sword and flung it at Tyrion's
feet. "I yield, my lord."
Dazed, the dwarf knelt and lifted the blade. Pain hammered through his elbow when he moved his arm.
The battle seemed to have moved beyond him. No one remained on his part of the field save a large
number of corpses. Ravens were already circling and landing to feed. He saw that Ser Kevan had
brought up his center in support of the van; his huge mass of pikemen had pushed the northerners back
against the hills. They were struggling on the slopes, pikes thrusting against another wall of shields, these
oval and reinforced with iron studs. As he watched, the air filled with arrows again, and the men behind
the oak wall crumbled beneath the murderous fire. "I believe you are losing, ser," he told the knight under
the horse. The man made no reply.
The sound of hooves coming up behind him made him whirl, though he could scarcely lift the sword he
held for the agony in his elbow. Brorm reined up and looked down on him.
"Small use you turned out to be," Tyrion told him.
"It would seem you did well enough on your own," Bronn answered. "You've lost the spike off your
helm, though."
Tyrion groped at the top of the greathelm. The spike had snapped off clean. "I haven't lost it. I know just
where it is. Do you see my horse?"
By the time they found it, the trumpets had sounded again and Lord Tywin's reserve came sweeping up
along the river. Tyrion watched his father fly past, the crimson-and-gold banner of Lannister rippling over
his head as he thundered across the field. Five hundred knights surrounded him, sunlight flashing off the
points of their lances. The remnants of the Stark lines shattered like glass beneath the hammer of their
charge.
With his elbow swollen and throbbing inside his armor, Tyrion made no attempt to join the slaughter. He
and Bronn went looking for his men. Many he found among the dead. Ulf son of Umar lay in a pool of
congealing blood, his arm gone at the elbow, a dozen of his Moon Brothers sprawled around him.
Shagga was slumped beneath a tree, riddled with arrows, Conn's head in his lap. Tyrion thought they
were both dead, but as he dismounted, Shagga opened his eyes and said, "They have killed Conn son of
Coratt." Handsome Conn had no mark but for the red stain over his breast, where the spear thrust had
killed him. When Bronn pulled Shagga to his feet, the big man seemed to notice the arrows for the first
time. He plucked them out one by one, cursing the holes they had made in his layers of mail and leather,
and yowling like a babe at the few that had buried themselves in his flesh. Chella daughter of Cheyk rode
up as they were yanking arrows out of Shagga, and showed them four ears she had taken. Timett they
discovered looting the bodies of the slain with his Burned Men. Of the three hundred clansmen who had
ridden to battle behind Tyrion Lannister, perhaps half had survived.
He left the living to look after the dead, sent Bronn to take charge of his captive knight, and went alone
in search of his father. Lord Tywin was seated by the river, sipping wine from a jeweled cup as his squire
undid the fastenings on his breastplate. "A fine victory," Ser Kevan said when he saw Tyrion. "Your wild


men fought well."
His father's eyes were on him, pale green flecked with gold, so cool they gave Tyrion a chill. "Did that
surprise you, Father?" he asked. "Did it upset your plans? We were supposed to be butchered, were we
not?"
Lord Tywin drained his cup, his face expressionless. "I put the least disciplined men on the left, yes. I
anticipated that they would break. Robb Stark is a green boy, more like to be brave than wise. I'd hoped
that if he saw our left collapse, he might plunge into the gap, eager for a rout. Once he was fully
committed, Ser Kevan's pikes would wheel
and take him in the flank, driving him into the river while I brought up the reserve."
"And you thought it best to place me in the midst of this carnage, yet keep me ignorant of your plans."
"A feigned rout is less convincing," his father said, "and I am not inclined to trust my plans to a man who
consorts with sellswords and savages."
"A pity my savages ruined your dance." Tyrion pulled off his steel gauntlet and let it fall to the ground,
wincing at the pain that stabbed up his arm.
"The Stark boy proved more cautious than I expected for one of his years," Lord Tywin admitted, "but a
victory is a victory. You appear to be wounded."
Tyrion's right arm was soaked with blood. "Good of you to notice, Father," he said through clenched
teeth. "Might I trouble you to send for your maesters? Unless you relish the notion of having a one-armed
dwarf for a son . . ."
An urgent shout of "Lord Tywin!" turned his father's head before he could reply. Tywin Lannister rose to
his feet as Ser Addam Marbrand leapt down off his courser. The horse was lathered and bleeding from
the mouth. Ser Addam dropped to one knee, a rangy man with dark copper hair that fell to his shoulders,
armored in burnished bronzed steel with the fiery tree of his House etched black on his breastplate. "My
liege, we have taken some of their commanders. Lord Cerwyn, Ser Wylis Manderly, Harrion Karstark,
four Freys. Lord Hornwood is dead, and I fear Roose Bolton has escaped us."
"And the boy?" Lord Tywin asked.
Ser Addam hesitated. "The Stark boy was not with them, my lord. They say he crossed at the Twins
with the great part of his horse, riding hard for Riverrun."
A green boy, Tyrion remembered, more like to be brave than wise. He would have laughed, if he hadn't
hurt so much.
CATELYN
The woods were full of whispers.


Moonlight winked on the tumbling waters of the stream below as it wound its rocky way along the floor
of the valley. Beneath the trees, warhorses whickered softly and pawed at the moist, leafy ground, while
men made nervous jests in hushed voices. Now and again, she heard the chink of spears, the faint
metallic slither of chain mail, but even those sounds were muffled.
"it should not be long now, my lady," Hallis Mollen said. He had asked for the honor of protecting her in
the battle to come; it was his right, as Winterfell's captain of guards, and Robb had not refused it to him.
She had thirty men around her, charged to keep her unharmed and see her safely home to Winterfell if
the fighting went against them. Robb had wanted fifty; Catelyn had insisted that ten would be enough, that
he would need every sword for the fight. They made their peace at thirty, neither happy with it.
"It will come when it comes," Catelyn told him. When it came, she knew it would mean death. Hal's
death perhaps . . . or hers, or Robb's. No one was safe. No life was certain. Catelyn was content to
wait, to listen to the whispers in the woods and the faint music of the brook, to feel the warm wind in her
hair.
She was no stranger to waiting, after all. Her men had always made her wait. "Watch for me, little cat,"
her father would always tell her,
when he rode off to court or fair or battle. And she would, standing patiently on the battlements of
Riverrun as the waters of the Red Fork and the Tumblestone flowed by. He did not always come when
he said he would, and days would ofttimes pass as Catelyn stood her vigil, peering out between crenels
and through arrow loops until she caught a glimpse of Lord Hoster on his old brown gelding, trotting
along the rivershore toward the landing. "Did you watch for me?" he'd ask when he bent to bug her. "Did
you, little cat?"
Brandon Stark had bid her wait as well. "I shall not be long, my lady," he had vowed. "We will be wed
on my return." Yet when the day came at last, it was his brother Eddard who stood beside her in the
sept.
Ned had lingered scarcely a fortnight with his new bride before he too had ridden off to war with
promises on his lips. At least he had left her with more than words; he had given her a son. Nine moons
had waxed and waned, and Robb had been born in Riverrun while his father still warred in the south. She
had brought him forth in blood and pain, not knowing whether Ned would ever see him. Her son. He had
been so small . . .
And now it was for Robb that she waited . . . for Robb, and for Jaime Lannister, the gilded knight who
men said had never learned to wait at all. "The Kingslayer is restless, and quick to anger," her uncle
Brynden had told Robb. And he had wagered their lives and their best hope of victory on the truth of
what he said.
If Robb was frightened, he gave no sign of it. Catelyn watched her son as he moved among the men,
touching one on the shoulder, sharing a jest with another, helping a third to gentle an anxious horse. His
armor clinked softly when he moved. Only his head was bare. Catelyn watched a breeze stir his auburn
hair, so like her own, and wondered when her son had grown so big. Fifteen, and near as tall as she was.
Let him grow taller, she asked the gods. Let him know sixteen, and twenty, and fifty. Let him grow as
tall as his father, and hold his own son in his arms. Please, please, please. As she watched him, this tall
young man with the new beard and the direwolf prowling at his heels, all she could see was the babe they


had laid at her breast at Riverrun, so long ago.
The night was warm, but the thought of Riverrun was enough to make her shiver. Where are they? she
wondered. Could her uncle have been wrong? So much rested on the truth of what he had told them.
Robb had given the Blackfish three hundred picked men, and sent them ahead to screen his march.
"Jaime does not know," Ser Brynden said when he rode back. "I'll stake my life on that. No bird has
reached
him, my archers have seen to that. We've seen a few of his outriders, but those that saw us did not live
to tell of it. He ought to have sent out more. He does not know."
"How large is his host?" her son asked.
"Twelve thousand foot, scattered around the castle in three separate camps, with the rivers between,"
her uncle said, with the craggy smile she remembered so well. "There is no other way to besiege
Riverrun, yet still, that will be their undoing. Two or three thousand horse."
:'The Kingslayer has us three to one," said Galbart Glover.
'True enough," Ser Brynden said, "yet there is one thing Ser Jaime lacks."
"Yes?" Robb asked.
"Patience."
Their host was greater than it had been when they left the Twins. Lord Jason Mallister had brought his
power out from Seagard to join them as they swept around the headwaters of the Blue Fork and
galloped south, and others had crept forth as well, hedge knights and small lords and masterless
men-at-arms who had fled north when her brother Edmure's army was shattered beneath the walls of
Riverrun. They had driven their horses as hard as they dared to reach this place before Jaime Lannister
had word of their coming, and now the hour was at hand.
Catelyn watched her son mount up. 01yvar Frey held his horse for him, Lord Walder's son, two years
older than Robb, and ten years younger and more anxious. He strapped Robb's shield in place and
handed up his helm. When he lowered it over the face she loved so well, a tall young knight sat on his
grey stallion where her son had been. It was dark among the trees, where the moon did not reach. When
Robb turned his head to look at her, she could see only black inside his visor. "I must ride down the line,
Mother," he told her. "Father says you should let the men see you before a battle."
'Go, then," she said. "Let them see you."
'It will give them courage," Robb said.
And who will give me courage? she wondered, yet she kept her silence and made herself smile for him.
Robb turned the big grey stallion and walked him slowly away from her, Grey Wind shadowing his steps.
Behind him his battle guard formed up. When he'd forced Catelyn to accept her protectors, she had
insisted that he be guarded as well, and the lords bannermen had agreed. Many of their sons had
clamored for the honor of riding with the Young Wolf, as they had taken to calling him. Torrhen Karstark
and his brother Eddard were


among his thirty, and Patrek Mallister, Smalljon Umber, Daryn Hornwood, Theon Greyjoy, no less than
five of Walder Frey's vast brood, along with older men like Ser Wendel Manderly and Robin Flint. One
of his companions was even a woman: Dacey Mormont, Lady Maege's eldest daughter and heir to Bear
Island, a lanky sixfooter who had been given a morningstar at an age when most girls were given dolls.
Some of the other lords muttered about that, but Catelyn would not listen to their complaints. "This is not
about the honor of your houses," she told them. "This is about keeping my son alive and whole."
And if it comes to that, she wondered, will thiny be enough? Will six thousand be enough?
A bird called faintly in the distance, a high sharp trill that felt like an icy hand on Catelyn's neck. Another
bird answered; a third, a fourth. She knew their call well enough, from her years at Winterfell. Snow
shrikes. Sometimes you saw them in the deep of winter, when the godswood was white and still. They
were northern birds.
They are coming, Catelyn thought.
"They're coming, my lady," Hal Mollen whispered. He was always a man for stating the obvious. "Gods
be with us."
She nodded as the woods grew still around them. In the quiet she could hear them, far off yet moving
closer; the tread of many horses, the rattle of swords and spears and armor, the murmur of human
voices, with here a laugh, and there a curse.
Eons seemed to come and go. The sounds grew louder. She heard more laughter, a shouted command,
splashing as they crossed and recrossed the little stream. A horse snorted. A man swore. And then at last
she saw him . . . only for an instant, framed between the branches of the trees as she looked down at the
valley floor, yet she knew it was him. Even at a distance, Ser Jaime Lannister was unmistakable. The
moonlight had silvered his armor and the gold of his hair, and turned his crimson cloak to black. He was
not wearing a helm.
He was there and he was gone again, his silvery armor obscured by the trees once more. Others came
behind him, long columns of them, knights and sworn swords and freeriders, three quarters of the
Lannister horse.
"He is no man for sitting in a tent while his carpenters build siege towers," Ser Brynden had promised.
"He has ridden out with his knights thrice already, to chase down raiders or storm a stubborn holdfast."
Nodding, Robb had studied the map her uncle had drawn him. Ned
had taught him to read maps. "Raid him here," he said, pointing. "A few hundred men, no more. Tully
banners. When he comes after you, we will be waiting"-his finger moved an inch to the left-"here."
Here was a hush in the night, moonlight and shadows, a thick carpet of dead leaves underfoot, densely
wooded ridges sloping gently down to the streambed, the underbrush thinning as the ground fell away.
Here was her son on his stallion, glancing back at her one last time and lifting his sword in salute.


Here was the call of Maege Mormont's warhorn, a long low blast that rolled down the valley from the
east, to tell them that the last of Jaime's riders had entered the trap.
And Grey Wind threw back his head and howled.
The sound seemed to go right through Catelyn Stark, and she found herself shivering. It was a terrible
sound, a frightening sound, yet there was music in it too. For a second she felt something like pity for the
Lannisters below. So this is what death sounds like, she thought.
HAAroooooooooooooooooooooooo came the answer from the far ridge as the Greatjon winded his
own horn. To east and west, the trumpets of the Mallisters and Freys blew vengeance. North, where the
valley narrowed and bent like a cocked elbow, Lord Karstark's warhorns added their own deep,
mournful voices to the dark chorus. Men were shouting and horses rearing in the stream below.
The whispering wood let out its breath all at once, as the bowmen Robb had hidden in the branches of
the trees let fly their arrows and the night erupted with the screams of men and horses. All around her, the
riders raised their lances, and the dirt and leaves that had buried the cruet bright points fell away to reveal
the gleam of sharpened steel. "Winte~pll!" she heard Robb shout as the arrows sighed again. He moved
away from her at a trot, leading his men downhill.
Catelyn sat on her horse, unmoving, with Hal Mollen and her guard around her, and she waited as she
had waited before, for Brandon and Ned and her father. She was high on the ridge, and the trees hid
most of what was going on beneath her. A heartbeat, two, four, and suddenly it was as if she and her
protectors were alone in the wood. The rest were melted away into the green.
Yet when she looked across the valley to the far ridge, she saw the Greatjon's riders emerge from the
darkness beneath the trees. They were in a long line, an endless line, and as they burst from the wood
there was an instant, the smallest part of a heartbeat, when all Catelyn saw was the moonlight on the
points of their lances, as if a thousand willowisps were coming down the ridge, wreathed in silver flame.
Then she blinked, and they were only men, rushing down to kill or die.
Afterward, she could not claim she had seen the battle. Yet she could hear, and the valley rang with
echoes. The crack of a broken lance, the clash of swords, the cries of "Lannister" and "Winterfell" and
"Tully! Riverrun and Tully!" When she realized there was no more to see, she closed her eyes and
listened. The battle came alive around her. She heard hoofbeats, iron boots splashing in shallow water,
the woody sound of swords on oaken shields and the scrape of steel against steel, the hiss of arrows, the
thunder of drums, the terrified screaming of a thousand horses. Men shouted curses and begged for
mercy, and got it (or not), and lived (or died). The ridges seemed to play queer tricks with sound. Once
she heard Robb's voice, as clear as if he'd been standing at her side, calling, "To me! To me!" And she
heard his direwolf, snarling and growling, heard the snap of those long teeth, the tearing of flesh, shrieks
of fear and pain from man and horse alike. Was there only one wolf? It was hard to be certain.
Little by little, the sounds dwindled and died, until at last there was only the wolf. As a red dawn broke
in the east, Grey Wind began to howl again.
Robb came back to her on a different horse, riding a piebald gelding in the place of the grey stallion he
had taken down into the valley. The wolf's head on his shield was slashed half to pieces, raw wood


showing where deep gouges had been hacked in the oak, but Robb himself seemed unhurt. Yet when he
came closer, Catelyn saw that his mailed glove and the sleeve of his surcoat were black with blood.
"You're hurt," she said.
Robb lifted his hand, opened and closed his fingers. "No," he said. "This is . . . Torrhen's blood,
perhaps, or He shook his head. "I do not know."
A mob of men followed him up the slope, dirty and dented and grinning, with Theon and the Greatjon at
their head. Between them they dragged Ser Jaime Lannister. They threw him down in front of her horse.
"The Kingslayer," Hal announced, unnecessarily.
Lannister raised his head. "Lady Stark," he said from his knees. Blood ran down one cheek from a gash
across his scalp, but the pale light of dawn had put the glint of gold back in his hair. "I would offer you my
sword, but I seem to have mislaid it."
"It is not your sword I want, ser," she told him. "Give me my father and my brother Edmure. Give me my
daughters. Give me my lord husband."
" I have mislaid them as well, I fear."
"A pity," Catelyn said coldly.
"Kill him, Robb," Theon Greyjoy urged. "Take his head off."
"No," her son answered, peeling off his bloody glove. "He's more use alive than dead. And my lord
father never condoned the murder of prisoners after a battle."
"A wise man," Jaime Lannister said, "and honorable."
"Take him away and put him in irons," Catelyn said.
"Do as my lady mother says," Robb commanded, "and make certain there's a strong guard around him.
Lord Karstark will want his head on a pike."
"That he will," the Greatjon agreed, gesturing. Lannister was led away to be bandaged and chained.
"Why should Lord Karstark want him dead?" Catelyn asked.
Robb looked away into the woods, with the same brooding look that Ned often got. "He . . . he killed
them . . ."
"Lord Karstark's sons," Galbart Glover explained.
"Both of them," said Robb. "Torrhen and Eddard. And Daryn Hornwood as well."
"No one can fault Lannister on his courage," Glover said. "When he saw that he was lost, he rallied his
retainers and fought his way up the valley, hoping to reach Lord Robb and cut him down. And almost
did."


"He mislaid his sword in Eddard Karstark's neck, after he took Torrhen's hand off and split Daryn
Hornwood's skull open," Robb said. "All the time he was shouting for me. If they hadn't tried to stop
him-"
"-I should then be mourning in place of Lord Karstark," Catelyn said. "Your men did what they were
sworn to do, Robb. They died protecting their liege lord. Grieve for them. Honor them for their valor.
But not now. You have no time for grief. You may have lopped the head off the snake, but three quarters
of the body is still coiled around my father's castle. We have won a battle, not a war."
"But such a battle!" said Theon Greyjoy eagerly. "My lady, the realm has not seen such a victory since
the Field of Fire. I vow, the Lannisters lost ten men for every one of ours that fell. We've taken close to a
hundred knights captive, and a dozen lords bannermen. Lord Westerling, Lord Banefort, Ser Garth
Greenfield, Lord Estren, Ser Tytos Brax, Mallor the Dornishman . . . and three Lannisters besides Jaime,
Lord Tywin's own nephews, two of his sister's sons and one of his dead brother's . . ."
"And Lord Tywin?" Catelyn interrupted. "Have you perchance taken Lord Tywin, Theon?"
"No," Greyjoy answered, brought up short.
"Until you do, this war is far from done."
Robb raised his head and pushed his hair back out of his eyes. "My mother is right. We still have
Riverrun."
DAENERYS
The flies circled Khal Drogo slowly, their wings buzzing, a low thrum at the edge of hearing that filled
Dany with dread.
The sun was high and pitiless. Heat shimmered in waves off the stony outcrops of low hills. A thin finger
of sweat trickled slowly between Dany's swollen breasts. The only sounds were the steady clop of their
horses' hooves, the rhythmic tingle of the bells in Drogo's hair, and the distant voices behind them.
Dany watched the flies.
They were as large as bees, gross, purplish, glistening. The Dothraki called them bloodflies. They lived in
marshes and stagnant pools, sucked blood from man and horse alike, and laid their eggs in the dead and
dying. Drogo hated them. Whenever one came near him, his hand would shoot out quick as a striking
snake to close around it. She had never seen him miss. He would hold the fly inside his huge fist long
enough to hear its frantic buzzing. Then his fingers would tighten, and when he opened his hand again, the
fly would be only a red smear on his palm.
Now one crept across the rump of his stallion, and the horse gave an angry flick of its tail to brush it
away. The others flitted about Drogo, closer and closer. The khal did not react. His eyes were fixed on
distant brown hills, the reins loose in his hands. Beneath his painted vest, a plaster of fig leaves and caked
blue mud covered the wound on his


breast. The herbwomen had made it for him. Mirri Maz Duur's poultice had itched and burned, and he
had torn it off six days ago, cursing her for a maegi. The mud plaster was more soothing, and the
herbwomen made him poppy wine as well. He'd been drinking it heavily these past three days; when it
was not poppy wine, it was fermented mare's milk or pepper beer.
Yet he scarcely touched his food, and he thrashed and groaned in the night. Dany could see how drawn
his face had become. Rhaego was restless in her belly, kicking like a stallion, yet even that did not stir
Drogo's interest as it had. Every morning her eyes found fresh lines of pain on his face when he woke
from his troubled sleep. And now this silence. It was making her afraid. Since they had mounted up at
dawn, he had said not a word. When she spoke, she got no answer but a grunt, and not even that much
since midday.
One of the bloodflies landed on the bare skin of the khal's shoulder. Another, circling, touched down on
his neck and crept up toward his mouth. Khal Drogo swayed in the saddle, bells ringing, as his stallion
kept onward at a steady walking pace.
Dany pressed her heels into her silver and rode closer. "My lord," she said softly. "Drogo. My
sun-and-stars."
He did not seem to hear. The bloodfly crawled up under his drooping mustache and settled on his
cheek, in the crease beside his nose. Dany gasped, "Drogo. " Clumsily she reached over and touched his
arm.
Khal Drogo reeled in the saddle, tilted slowly, and fell heavily from his horse. The flies scattered for a
heartbeat, and then circled back to settle on him where he lay.
"No," Dany said, reining up. Heedless of her belly for once, she scrambled off her silver and ran to him.
The grass beneath him was brown and dry. Drogo cried out in pain as Dany knelt beside him. His breath
rattled harshly in his throat, and he looked at her without recognition. "My horse," he gasped. Dany
brushed the flies off his chest, smashing one as he would have. His skin burned beneath her fingers.
The khal's bloodriders had been following just behind them. She heard Haggo shout as they galloped up.
Cohollo vaulted from his horse. "Blood of my blood," he said as he dropped to his knees. The other two
kept to their mounts.
"No," Khal Drogo groaned, struggling in Dany's arms. "Must ride. Ride. No."
"He fell from his horse," Haggo said, staring down. His broad face was impassive, but his voice was
leaden.
"You must not say that," Dany told him. "We have ridden far enough today. We will camp here."
"Here?" Haggo looked around them. The land was brown and sere, inhospitable. "This is no camping
ground."
"It is not for a woman to bid us halt," said Qotho, "not even a khaleesi."


"We camp here," Dany repeated. "Haggo, tell them Khal Drogo commanded the halt. If any ask why,
say to them that my time is near and I could not continue. Cohollo, bring up the slaves, they must put up
the khal's tent at once. Qotho-"
"You do not command me, Khaleesi," Qotho said.
"Find Mirri Maz Duur," she told him. The godswife would be walking among the other Lamb Men, in the
long column of slaves. "Bring her to me, with her chest."
Qotho glared down at her, his eyes hard as flint. "The maegi." He spat. "This I will not do."
"You will," Dany said, "or when Drogo wakes, he will hear why you defied me."
Furious, Qotho wheeled his stallion around and galloped off in anger . . . but Dany knew he would return
with Mirri Maz Duur, however little he might like it. The slaves erected Khal Drogo's tent beneath a
jagged outcrop of black rock whose shadow gave some relief from the heat of the afternoon sun. Even
so, it was stifling under the sandsilk as Irri and Doreah helped Dany walk Drogo inside. Thick patterned
carpets had been laid down over the ground, and pillows scattered in the corners. Eroeh, the timid girl
Dany had rescued outside the mud walls of the Lamb Men, set up a brazier. They stretched Drogo out
on a woven mat. "No," he muttered in the Common Tongue. "No, no." It was all he said, all he seemed
capable of saying.
Doreah unhooked his medallion belt and stripped off his vest and leggings, while Jhiqui knelt by his feet
to undo the laces of his riding sandals. Irri wanted to leave the tent flaps open to let in the breeze, but
Dany forbade it. She would not have any see Drogo this way, indelirium and weakness. When her khas
came up, she posted them outside at guard. "Admit no one without my leave," she told Jhogo. "No one."
Eroeh stared fearfully at Drogo where he lay. "He dies," she whispered.
Dany slapped her. "The khal cannot die. He is the father of the stallion who mounts the world. His hair
has never been cut. He still wears the bells his father gave him."
"Khaleesi, " Jhiqui said, "he fell from his horse."
Trembling, her eyes full of sudden tears, Dany turned away from them. He fell from his horse! It was so,
she had seen it, and the bloodriders, and no doubt her handmaids and the men of her khas as well. And
how many more? They could not keep it secret, and Dany knew what that meant. A khal who could not
ride could not rule, and Drogo had fallen from his horse.
"We must bathe him," she said stubbornly. She must not allow herself to despair. "Irri, have the tub
brought at once. Doreah, Eroeh, find water, cool water, he's so hot." He was a fire in human skin.
The slaves set up the heavy copper tub in the corner of the tent. When Doreah brought the first jar of
water, Dany wet a length of silk to lay across Drogo's brow, over the burning skin. His eyes looked at
her, but he did not see. When his lips opened, no words escaped them, only a moan. "Where is Mirri
Maz Duur?" she demanded, her patience rubbed raw with fear.
"Ootho will find her," Irri said.


Her handmaids filled the tub with tepid water that stank of sulfur, sweetening it with jars of bitter oil and
handfuls of crushed mint leaves. While the bath was being prepared, Dany knelt awkwardly beside her
lord husband, her belly great with their child within. She undid his braid with anxious fingers, as she had
on the night he'd taken her for the first time, beneath the stars. His bells she laid aside carefully, one by
one. He would want them again when he was well, she told herself.
A breath of air entered the tent as Aggo poked his head through the silk. "Khaleesi, " he said, "the Andal
is come, and begs leave to enter."
"The Andal" was what the Dothraki called Ser Jorah. "Yes," she said, rising clumsily, "send him in." She
trusted the knight. He would know what to do if anyone did.
Ser Jorah Mormont ducked through the door flap and waited a moment for his eyes to adjust to the
dimness. In the fierce heat of the south, he wore loose trousers of mottled sandsilk and open-toed riding
sandals that laced up to his knee. His scabbard hung from a twisted horsehair belt. Under a bleached
white vest, he was bare-chested, skin reddened by the sun. "Talk goes from mouth to ear, all over the
khalasar," he said. "It is said Khal Drogo fell from his horse."
"Help him," Dany pleaded. "For the love you say you bear me, help him now."
The knight knelt beside her. He looked at Drogo long and hard, and then at Dany. "Send your maids
away."
Wordlessly, her throat tight with fear, Dany made a gesture. Irri herded the other girls from the tent.
When they were alone, Ser Jorah drew his dagger. Deftly, with a delicacy surprising in such a big man,
he began to scrape away the black leaves and dried blue mud from Drogo's chest. The plaster had caked
hard as the mud walls of the Lamb Men, and like those walls it cracked easily. Ser Jorah broke the dry
mud with his knife, pried the chunks from the flesh, peeled off the leaves one by one. A foul, sweet smell
rose from the wound, so thick it almost choked her. The leaves were crusted with blood and pus,
Drogo's breast black and glistening with corruption.
"No," Dany whispered as tears ran down her cheeks. "No, please, gods hear me, no."
Khal Drogo thrashed, fighting some unseen enemy. Black blood ran slow and thick from his open
wound.
"Your khal is good as dead, Princess."
"No, he can't die, he mustn't, it was only a cut." Dany took his large callused hand in her own small ones,
and held it tight between them. "I will not let him die . . ."
Ser Jorah gave a bitter laugh. "Khaleesi or queen, that command is beyond your power. Save your
tears, child. Weep for him tomorrow, or a year from now. We do not have time for grief. We must go,
and quickly, before he dies."
Dany was lost. "Go? Where should we go?"


"Asshai, I would say. It lies far to the south, at the end of the known world, yet men say it is a great port.
We will find a ship to take us back to Pentos. It will be a hard journey, make no mistake. Do you trust
your khas? Will they come with us?"
"Khal Drogo commanded them to keep me safe," Dany replied uncertainly, "but if he dies . . ." She
touched the swell of her belly. "I don't understand. Why should we flee? I am khaleesi. I carry Drogo's
heir. He will be khal after Drogo . . ."
Ser Jorah frowned. "Princess, hear me. The Dothraki will not follow a suckling babe. Drogo's strength
was what they bowed to, and only that. When he is gone, Jhaqo and Pono and the other kos will fight for
his place, and this khalasar will devour itself. The winner will want no more rivals. The boy will be taken
from your breast the moment he is born. They will give him to the dogs . . ."
Dany hugged herself. "But why?" she cried plaintively. "Why should they kill a little baby?"
"He is Drogo's son, and the crones say he will be the stallion who mounts the world. It was prophesied.
Better to kill the child than to risk his fury when he grows to manhood."
The child kicked inside her, as if he had heard. Dany remembered
the story Viserys had told her, of what the Usurper's dogs had done to Rhaegar's children. His son had
been a babe as well, yet they had ripped him from his mother's breast and dashed his head against a wall.
That was the way of men. "They must not hurt my son!" she cried. "I will order my khas to keep him safe,
and Drogo's bloodriders will-"
Ser Jorah held her by the shoulders. "A bloodrider dies with his khaL You know that, child. They will
take you to Vaes Dothrak, to the crones, that is the last duty they owe him in life . . . when it is done,
they will join Drogo in the night lands."
Dany did not want to go back to Vaes Dothrak and live the rest of her life among those terrible old
women, yet she knew that the knight spoke the truth. Drogo had been more than her sun-and-stars; he
had been the shield that kept her safe. "I will not leave him," she said stubbornly, miserably. She took his
hand again. "I will not."
A stirring at the tent flap made Dany turn her head. MirTi Maz Duur entered, bowing low. Days on the
march, trailing behind the khalasar, had left her limping and haggard, with blistered and bleeding feet and
hollows under her eyes. Behind her came Ootho and Haggo, carrying the godswife's chest between
them. When the bloodriders caught sight of Drogo's wound, the chest slipped from Haggo's fingers and
crashed to the floor of the tent, and Qotho swore an oath so foul it seared the air.
Mirri Maz Duur studied Drogo, her face still and dead. "The wound has festered."
"This is your work, maegi," Ootho said. Haggo laid his fist across Mirri's cheek with a meaty smack that
drove her to the ground. Then he kicked her where she lay.
"Stop it!" Dany screamed.
Qotho pulled Haggo away, saying, "Kicks are too merciful for a maegi. Take her outside. We will stake
her to the earth, to be the mount of every passing man. And when they are done with her, the dogs will


use her as well. Weasels will tear out her entrails and carrion crows feast upon her eyes. The flies off the
river shall lay their eggs in her womb and drink pus from the ruins of her breasts . . ." He dug iron-hard
fingers into the soft, wobbly flesh under the godswife's arm and hauled her to her feet.
"No," Dany said. "I will not have her harmed."
Qotho's lips skinned back from his crooked brown teeth in a terrible mockery of a smile. "No? You say
me no? Better you should pray that we do not stake you out beside your maegi. You did this, as much as
the other."
Ser Jorah stepped between them, loosening his longsword in its scabbard. "Rein in your tongue,
bloodrider. The princess is still your khaleesi. "
"Only while the blood-of-my-blood still lives," Qotho told the knight. "When he dies, she is nothing."
Dany felt a tightness inside her. "Before I was khaleesi, I was the blood of the dragon. Ser Jorah,
summon my khas."
"No," said Qotho. "We will go. For now . . . Khaleesi. " Haggo followed him from the tent, scowling.
"That one means you no good, Princess," Mormont said. "The Dothraki say a man and his bloodriders
share one life, and Qotho sees it ending. A dead man is beyond fear."
"No one has died," Dany said. "Ser Jorah, I may have need of your blade. Best go don your armor."
She was more frightened than she dared admit, even to herself.
The knight bowed. "As you say." He strode from the tent.
Dany turned back to Mirri Maz Duur. The woman's eyes were wary. "So you have saved me once
more."
"And now you must save him," Dany said. "Please
"You do not ask a slave," Mirri replied sharply, "you tell her." She went to Drogo burning on his mat,
and gazed long at his wound. "Ask or tell, it makes no matter. He is beyond a healer's skills." The khal's
eyes were closed. She opened one with her fingers. "He has been dulling the hurt with milk of the
poppy."
"Yes," Dany admitted.
"I made him a poultice of firepod and sting-me-not and bound it in a lambskin."
"It burned, he said. He tore it off. The herbwomen made him a new one, wet and soothing."
"It burned, yes. There is great healing magic in fire, even your hairless men know that."
"Make him another poultice," Dany begged. "This time I will make certain he wears it."
"The time for that is past, my lady," Mirri said. "All I can do now is ease the dark road before him, so he


might ride painless to the night lands. He will be gone by morning."
Her words were a knife through Dany's breast. What had she ever done to make the gods so cruel? She
had finally found a safe place, had finally tasted love and hope. She was finally going home. And now to
lose it all . . . "No," she pleaded. "Save him, and I will free you, I swear it. You must know a way . . .
some magic, some . . ."
Mirri Maz Duur sat back on her heels and studied Daenerys
through eyes as black as night. "There is a spell." Her voice was quiet, scarcely more than a whisper.
"But it is hard, lady, and dark. Some would say that death is cleaner. I learned the way in Asshai, and
paid dear for the lesson. My teacher was a bloodmage from the Shadow Lands."
Dany went cold all over. "Then you truly are a maegi
"Am IT' Mirri Maz Duur smiled. "Only a maegi can save your rider now, Silver Lady."
"Is there no other way?"
"No other."
Khal Drogo gave a shuddering gasp.
"Do it," Dany blurted. She must not be afraid; she was the blood of the dragon. "Save him."
"There is a price," the godswife warned her.
"You'll have gold, horses, whatever you like."
"It is not a matter of gold or horses. This is bloodmagic, lady. Only death may pay for life."
"Death?" Dany wrapped her arms around herself protectively, rocked back and forth on her heels. "My
death?" She told herself she would die for him, if she must. She was the blood of the dragon, she would
not be afraid. Her brother Rhaegar had died for the woman he loved.
"No," Mirri Maz Duur promised. "Not your death, Khaleesi."
Dany trembled with relief. "Do it."
The maegi nodded solemnly. "As you speak, so it shall be done. Call your servants."
Khal Drogo writhed feebly as Rakharo and Quaro lowered him into the bath. "No," he muttered, "no.
Must ride." Once in the water, all the strength seemed to leak out of him.
"Bring his horse," Mirri Maz Duur commanded, and so it was done. Jhogo led the great red stallion into
the tent. When the animal caught the scent of death, he screamed and reared, rolling his eyes. It took
three men to subdue him.
"What do you mean to do?" Dany asked her.


"We need the blood," Mirri answered. "That is the way."
Jhogo edged back, his hand on his arakh. He was a youth of sixteen years, whip-thin, fearless, quick to
laugh, with the faint shadow of his first mustachio on his upper lip. He fell to his knees before her.
"Khaleesi, " he pleaded, "you must not do this thing. Let me kill this maegi."
"Kill her and you kill your khal," Dany said.
"This is bloodmagic," he said. "It is forbidden."
" I am khaleesi, and I say it is not forbidden. In Vaes Dothrak, Khal Drogo slew a stallion and I ate his
heart, to give our son strength and courage. This is the same. The same."
The stallion kicked and reared as Rakharo, Quaro, and Aggo pulled him close to the tub where the khal
floated like one already dead, pus and blood seeping from his wound to stain the bathwaters. Mirri Maz
Duur chanted words in a tongue that Dany did not know, and a knife appeared in her hand. Dany never
saw where it came from. It looked old; hammered red bronze, leaf-shaped, its blade covered with
ancient glyphs. The maegi drew it across the stallion's throat, under the noble head, and the horse
screamed and shuddered as the blood poured out of him in a red rush. He would have collapsed, but the
men of her khas held him up. "Strength of the mount, go into the rider," Mirri sang as horse blood swirled
into the waters of Drogo's bath. "Strength of the beast, go into the man."
Jhogo looked terrified as he struggled with the stallion's weight, afraid to touch the dead flesh, yet afraid
to let go as well. Only a horse, Dany thought. If she could buy Drogo's life with the death of a horse, she
would pay a thousand times over.
When they let the stallion fall, the bath was a dark red, and nothing showed of Drogo but his face. Mirri
Maz Duur had no use for the carcass. "Burn it," Dany told them. It was what they did, she knew. When a
man died, his mount was killed and placed beneath him on the funeral pyre, to carry him to the night
lands. The men of her khas dragged the carcass from the tent. The blood had gone everywhere. Even the
sandsilk walls were spotted with red, and the rugs underfoot were black and wet.
Braziers were lit. Mirri Maz Duur tossed a red powder onto the coals. It gave the smoke a spicy scent,
a pleasant enough smell, yet Eroeh fled sobbing, and Dany was filled with fear. But she had gone too far
to turn back now. She sent her handmaids away. "Go with them, Silver Lady," Mirri Maz Duur told her.
"I will stay," Dany said. "The man took me under the stars and gave life to the child inside me. I will not
leave him."
"You must. Once I begin to sing, no one must enter this tent. My song will wake powers old and dark.
The dead will dance here this night. No living man must look on them."
Dany bowed her head, helpless. "No one will enter." She bent over the tub, over Drogo in his bath of
blood, and kissed him lightly on the brow. "Bring him back to me," she whispered to Mirri Maz Duur
before she fled.
Outside, the sun was low on the horizon, the sky a bruised red. The


khalasar had made camp. Tents and sleeping mats were scattered as far as the eye could see. A hot
wind blew. Jhogo and Aggo were digging a firepit to burn the dead stallion. A crowd had gathered to
stare at Dany with hard black eyes, their faces like masks of beaten copper. She saw Ser Jorah
Mormont, wearing mail and leather now, sweat beading on his broad, balding forehead. He pushed his
way through the Dothraki to Dany's side. When he saw the scarlet footprints her boots had left on the
ground, the color seemed to drain from his face. "What have you done, you little fool?" he asked
hoarsely.
"I had to save him."
"We could have fled," he said. "I would have seen you safe to Asshai, Princess. There was no need . . ."
"Am I truly your princess?" she asked him.
"You know you are, gods save us both."
"Then help me now."
Ser Jorah grimaced. "Would that I knew how."
Mirri Maz Duur's voice rose to a high, ululating wail that sent a shiver down Dany's back. Some of the
Dothraki began to mutter and back away. The tent was aglow with the light of braziers within. Through
the blood-spattered sandsilk, she glimpsed shadows moving.
Mirri Maz Duur was dancing, and not alone.
Dany saw naked fear on the faces of the Dothraki. "This must not be," Ootho thundered.
She had not seen the bloodrider return. Haggo and Cohollo were with him. They had brought the
hairless men, the eunuchs who healed with knife and needle and fire.
"This will be," Dany replied.
"Maegi, " Haggo growled. And old Cohollo-Cohollo who had bound his life to Drogo's on the day of his
birth, Cohollo who had always been kind to her-Cohollo spat full in her face.
"You will die, maegi," Qotho promised, "but the other must die first." He drew his arakh and made for
the tent.
"No," she shouted, "you mustn't." She caught him by the shoulder, but Qotho shoved her aside. Dany fell
to her knees, crossing her arms over her belly to protect the child within. "Stop him," she commanded her
khas, "kill him."
Rakharo and Quaro stood beside the tent flap. Quaro took a step forward, reaching for the handle of his
whip, but Qotho spun graceful as a dancer, the curved arakh rising. It caught Quaro low under the arm,
the bright sharp steel biting up through leather and skin, through muscle and rib bone. Blood fountained
as the young rider reeled backward, gasping.


Qotho wrenched the blade free. "Horselord," Ser Jorah Mormont called. "Try me." His longsword slid
from its scabbard.
Qotho whirled, cursing. The arakh moved so fast that Quaro's blood flew from it in a fine spray, like rain
in a hot wind. The longsword caught it a foot from Ser Jorah's face, and held it quivering for an instant as
Qotho howled in fury. The knight was clad in chainmail, with gauntlets and greaves of lobstered steel and
a heavy gorget around his throat, but he had not thought to don his helm.
Qotho danced backward, arakh whirling around his head in a shining blur, flickering out like lightning as
the knight came on in a rush. Ser Jorah parried as best he could, but the slashes came so fast that it
seemed to Dany that Qotho had four arakhs and as many arms. She heard the crunch of sword on mail,
saw sparks fly as the long curved blade glanced off a gauntlet. Suddenly it was Mormont stumbling
backward, and Qotho leaping to the attack. The left side of the knight's face ran red with blood, and a
cut to the hip opened a gash in his mail and left him limping. Qotho screamed taunts at him, calling him a
craven, a milk man, a eunuch in an iron suit. "You die now!" he promised, arakh shivering through the red
twilight. Inside Dany's womb, her son kicked wildly. The curved blade slipped past the straight one and
bit deep into the knight's hip where the mail gaped open.
Mormont grunted, stumbled. Dany felt a sharp pain in her belly, a wetness on her thighs. Qotho shrieked
triumph, but his arakh had found bone, and for half a heartbeat it caught.
It was enough. Ser Jorah brought his longsword down with all the strength left him, through flesh and
muscle and bone, and Qotho's forearm dangled loose, flopping on a thin cord of skin and sinew. The
knight's next cut was at the Dothraki's ear, so savage that Qotho's face seemed almost to explode.
The Dothraki were shouting, Mirri Maz Duur wailing inside the tent like nothing human, Quaro pleading
for water as he died. Dany cried out for help, but no one heard. Rakharo was fighting Haggo, arakh
dancing with arakh until Jhogo's whip cracked, loud as thunder, the lash coiling around Haggo's throat. A
yank, and the bloodrider stumbled backward, losing his feet and his sword. Rakharo sprang forward,
howling, swinging his arakh down with both hands through the top of Haggo's head. The point caught
between his eyes, red and quivering. Someone threw a stone, and when Dany looked, her shoulder was
torn and bloody. "No," she wept, "no, please, stop it, it's too high, the price is too high." More stones
came flying. She tried to crawl toward the tent, but Cohollo caught her. Fingers in her hair, he pulled
her head back and she felt the cold touch of his knife at her throat. "My baby," she screamed, and
perhaps the gods heard, for as quick as that, Cohollo was dead. Aggo's arrow took him under the arm,
to pierce his lungs and heart.
When at last Daenerys found the strength to raise her head, she saw the crowd dispersing, the Dothraki
stealing silently back to their tents and sleeping mats. Some were saddling horses and riding off. The sun
had set. Fires burned throughout the khalasar, great orange blazes that crackled with fury and spit
embers at the sky. She tried to rise, and agony seized her and squeezed her like a giant's fist. The breath
went out of her; it was all she could do to gasp. The sound of Mirri Maz Duur's voice was like a funeral
dirge. Inside the tent, the shadows whirled.
An arm went under her waist, and then Ser Jorah was lifting her off her feet. His face was sticky with
blood, and Dany saw that half his ear was gone. She convulsed in his arms as the pain took her again,
and heard the knight shouting for her handmaids to help him. Are they all so afraid? She knew the


answer. Another pain grasped her, and Dany bit back a scream. It felt as if her son had a knife in each
hand, as if he were hacking at her to cut his way out. "Doreah, curse you," Ser Jorah roared. "Come
here. Fetch the birthing women."
"They will not come. They say she is accursed."
"They'll come or I'll have their heads."
Doreah wept. "They are gone, my lord."
"The maegi," someone else said. Was that Aggo? "Take her to the maegi.11
No, Dany wanted to say, no, not that, you mustn't, but when she opened her mouth, a long wail of pain
escaped, and the sweat broke over her skin. What was wrong with them, couldn't they see? Inside the
tent the shapes were dancing, circling the brazier and the bloody bath, dark against the sandsilk, and
some did not look human. She glimpsed the shadow of a great wolf, and another like a man wreathed in
flames.
"The Lamb Woman knows the secrets of the birthing bed," Irri said. "She said so, I heard her."
"Yes," Doreah agreed, "I heard her too."
No, she shouted, or perhaps she only thought it, for no whisper of sound escaped her lips. She was
being carried. Her eyes opened to gaze up at a flat dead sky, black and bleak and starless. Please, no.
The sound of Mirri Maz Duur's voice grew louder, until it filled the world. The shapes! she screamed.
The dancers!
Ser Jorah carried her inside the tent.
ARYA
The scent of hot bread drifting from the shops along the Street of Flour was sweeter than any perfume
Arya had ever smelled. She took a deep breath and stepped closer to the pigeon. It was a plump one,
speckled brown, busily pecking at a crust that had fallen between two cobblestones, but when Arya's
shadow touched it, it took to the air.
Her stick sword whistled out and caught it two feet off the ground, and it went down in a flurry of brown
feathers. She was on it in the blink of an eye, grabbing a wing as the pigeon flapped and fluttered. It
pecked at her hand. She grabbed its neck and twisted until she felt the bone snap.
Compared with catching cats, pigeons were easy.
A passing septon was looking at her askance. "Here's the best place to find pigeon," Arya told him as
she brushed herself off and picked up her fallen stick sword. "They come for the crumbs." He hurried
away.
She tied the pigeon to her belt and started down the street. A man was pushing a load of tarts by on a
two-wheeled cart; the smells sang of blueberries and lemons and apricots. Her stomach made a hollow
rumbly noise. "Could I have one?" she heard herself say. "A lemon, or


. or any kind."
The pushcart man looked her up and down. Plainly he did not like what he saw. "Three coppers."
Arya tapped her wooden sword against the side of her boot. "I'll trade you a fat pigeon," she said.
"The Others take your pigeon," the pushcart man said.
The tarts were still warm from the oven. The smells were making her mouth water, but she did not have
three coppers . . . or one. She gave the pushcart man a look, remembering what Syrio had told her about
seeing. He was short, with a little round belly, and when he moved he seemed to favor his left leg a little.
She was just thinking that if she snatched a tart and ran he would never be able to catch her when he
said, "You be keepin' your filthy hands off. The gold cloaks know how to deal with thieving little gutter
rats, that they do."
Arya glanced warily behind her. Two of the City Watch were standing at the mouth of an alley. Their
cloaks hung almost to the ground, the heavy wool dyed a rich gold; their mail and boots and gloves were
black. One wore a longsword at his hip, the other an iron cudgel. With a last wistful glance at the tarts,
Arya edged back from the cart and hurried off. The gold cloaks had not been paying her any special
attention, but the sight of them tied her stomach in knots. Arya had been staying as far from the castle as
she could get, yet even from a distance she could see the heads rotting atop the high red walls. Flocks of
crows squabbled noisily over each head, thick as flies. The talk in Flea Bottom was that the gold cloaks
had thrown in with the Lannisters, their commander raised to a lord, with lands on the Trident and a seat
on the king's council.
She had also heard other things, scary things, things that made no sense to her. Some said her father had
murdered King Robert and been slain in turn by Lord Renly. Others insisted that Renly had killed the
king in a drunken quarrel between brothers. Why else should he have fled in the night like a common
thief? One story said the king had been killed by a boar while hunting, another that he'd died eating a
boar, stuffing himself so full that he'd ruptured at the table. No, the king had died at table, others said, but
only because Varys the Spider poisoned him. No, it had been the queen who poisoned him. No, he had
died of a pox. No, he had choked on a fish bone.
One thing all the stories agreed on: King Robert was dead. The bells in the seven towers of the Great
Sept of Baelor had tolled for a day and a night, the thunder of their grief rolling across the city in a bronze
tide. They only rang the bells like that for the death of a king, a tanner's boy told Arya.
All she wanted was to go home, but leaving King's Landing was not so easy as she had hoped. Talk of
war was on every lip, and gold cloaks were as thick on the city walls as fleas on . . . well, her, for one.
She
had been sleeping in Flea Bottom, on rooftops and in stables, wherever she could find a place to lie
down, and it hadn't taken her long to learn that the district was well named.
Every day since her escape from the Red Keep, Arya had visited each of the seven city gates in turn.
The Dragon Gate, the Lion Gate, and the Old Gate were closed and barred. The Mud Gate and the


Gate of the Gods were open, but only to those who wanted to enter the city; the guards let no one out.
Those who were allowed to leave left by the King's Gate or the Iron Gate, but Lannister men-at-arms in
crimson cloaks and lion-crested helms manned the guard posts there. Spying down from the roof of an
inn by the King's Gate, Arya saw them searching wagons and carriages, forcing riders to open their
saddlebags, and questioning everyone who tried to pass on foot.
Sometimes she thought about swimming the river, but the Blackwater Rush was wide and deep, and
everyone agreed that its currents were wicked and treacherous. She had no coin to pay a ferryman or
take passage on a ship.
Her lord father had taught her never to steal, but it was growing harder to remember why. If she did not
get out soon, she would have to take her chances with the gold cloaks. She hadn't gone hungry much
since she learned to knock down birds with her stick sword, but she feared so much pigeon was making
her sick. A couple she'd eaten raw, before she found Flea Bottom.
In the Bottom there were pot-shops along the alleys where huge tubs of stew had been simmering for
years, and you could trade half your bird for a heel of yesterday's bread and a "bowl o' brown," and
they'd even stick the other half in the fire and crisp it up for you, so long as you plucked the feathers
yourself. Arya would have given anything for a cup of milk and a lemon cake, but the brown wasn't so
bad. It usually had barley in it, and chunks of carrot and onion and turnip, and sometimes even apple,
with a film of grease swimming on top. Mostly she tried not to think about the meat. Once she had gotten
a piece of fish.
The only thing was, the pot-shops were never empty, and even as she bolted down her food, Arya
could feel them watching. Some of them stared at her boots or her cloak, and she knew what they were
thinking. With others, she could almost feel their eyes crawling under her leathers; she didn't know what
they were thinking, and that scared her even more. A couple times, she was followed out into the alleys
and chased, but so far no one had been able to catch her.
The silver bracelet she'd hoped to sell had been stolen her first night out of the castle, along with her
bundle of good clothes, snatched
while she slept in a burnt-out house off Pig Alley. All they left her was the cloak she had been huddled
in, the leathers on her back, her wooden practice sword . . . and Needle. She'd been lying on top of
Needle, or else it would have been gone too; it was worth more than all the rest together. Since then
Arya had taken to walking around with her cloak draped over her right arm, to conceal the blade at her
hip. The wooden sword she carried in her left hand, out where everybody could see it, to scare off
robbers, but there were men in the pot-shops who wouldn't have been scared off if she'd had a
battle-axe. It was enough to make her lose her taste for pigeon and stale bread. Often as not, she went to
bed hungry rather than risk the stares.
Once she was outside the city, she would find berries to pick, or orchards she might raid for apples and
cherries. Arya remembered seeing some from the kingsroad on the journey south. And she could dig for
roots in the forest, even run down some rabbits. In the city, the only things to run down were rats and
cats and scrawny dogs. The potshops would give you a fistful of coppers for a litter of pups, she'd heard,
but she didn't like to think about that.
Down below the Street of Flour was a maze of twisting alleys and cross streets. Arya scrambled through
the crowds, trying to put distance between her and the gold cloaks. She had learned to keep to the


center of the street. Sometimes she had to dodge wagons and horses, but at least you could see them
coming. If you walked near the buildings, people grabbed you. In some alleys you couldn't help but brush
against the walls; the buildings leaned in so close they almost met.
A whooping gang of small children went running past, chasing a rolling hoop. Arya stared at them with
resentment, remembering the times she'd played at hoops with Bran and Jon and their baby brother
Rickon. She wondered how big Rickon had grown, and whether Bran was sad. She would have given
anything if Jon had been here to call her "little sister" and muss her hair. Not that it needed mussing. She'd
seen her reflection in puddles, and she didn't think hair got any more mussed than hers.
She had tried talking to the children she saw in the street, hoping to make a friend who would give her a
place to sleep, but she must have talked wrong or something. The little ones only looked at her with
quick, wary eyes and ran away if she came too close. Their big brothers and sisters asked questions
Arya couldn't answer, called her names, and tried to steal from her. Only yesterday, a scrawny barefoot
girl twice her age had knocked her down and tried to pull the boots off her feet, but Arya gave her a
crack on her ear with her stick sword that sent her off sobbing and bleeding.
A gull wheeled overhead as she made her way down the hill toward Flea Bottom. Arya glanced at it
thoughtfully, but it was well beyond the reach of her stick. It made her think of the sea. Maybe that was
the way out. Old Nan used to tell stories of boys who stowed away on trading galleys and sailed off into
all kinds of adventures. Maybe Arya could do that too. She decided to visit the riverfront. It was on the
way to the Mud Gate anyway, and she hadn't checked that one today.
The wharfs were oddly quiet when Arya got there. She spied another pair of gold cloaks, walking side
by side through the fish market, but they never so much as looked at her. Half the stalls were empty, and
it seemed to her that there were fewer ships at dock than she remembered. Out on the Blackwater, three
of the king's war galleys moved in formation, gold-painted hulls splitting the water as their oars rose and
fell. Arya watched them for a bit, then began to make her way along the river.
When she saw the guardsmen on the third pier, in grey woolen cloaks trimmed with white satin, her heart
almost stopped in her chest. The sight of Winterfell's colors brought tears to her eyes. Behind them, a
sleek three-banked trading galley rocked at her moorings. Arya could not read the name painted on the
hull; the words were strange, Myrish, Braavosi, perhaps even High Valyrian. She grabbed a passing
longshoreman by the sleeve. "Please," she said, "what ship is this?"
"She's the Wind Witch, out of Myr," the man said.
"She's still here," Arya blurted. The longshoreman gave her a queer look, shrugged, and walked away.
Arya ran toward the pier. The Wind Witch was the ship Father had hired to take her home . . . still
waiting! She'd imagined it had sailed ages ago.
Two of the guardsmen were dicing together while the third walked rounds, his hand on the pommel of
his sword. Ashamed to let them see her crying like a baby, she stopped to rub at her eyes. Her eyes her
eyes her eyes, why did . . .
Look with your eyes, she heard Syrio whisper.
Arya looked. She knew all of her father's men. The three in the grey cloaks were strangers. "You," the
one walking rounds called out. "What do you want here, boy?" The other two looked up from their dice.


It was all Arya could do not to bolt and run, but she knew that if she did, they would be after her at
once. She made herself walk closer. They were looking for a girl, but he thought she was a boy. She'd be
a boy, then. "Want to buy a pigeon?" She showed him the dead bird.
"Get out of here," the guardsman said.
Arya did as he told her. She did not have to pretend to be frightened. Behind her, the men went back to
their dice.
She could not have said how she got back to Flea Bottom, but she was breathing hard by the time she
reached the narrow crooked unpaved streets between the hills. The Bottom had a stench to it, a stink of
pigsties and stables and tanner's sheds, mixed in with the sour smell of winesinks and cheap
whorehouses. Arya wound her way through the maze dully. It was not until she caught a wWiff of
bubbling brown coming through a pot-shop door that she realized her pigeon was gone. It must have
slipped from her belt as she ran, or someone had stolen it and she'd never noticed. For a moment she
wanted to cry again. She'd have to walk all the way back to the Street of Flour to find another one that
plump.
Far across the city, bells began to ring.
Arya glanced up, listening, wondering what the ringing meant this time.
"What's this now?" a fat man called from the pot-shop.
"The bells again, gods ha'mercy," wailed an old woman.
A red-haired whore in a wisp of painted silk pushed open a secondstory window. "Is it the boy king
that's died now?" she shouted down, leaning out over the street. "Ah, that's a boy for you, they never last
long." As she laughed, a naked man slid his arms around her from behind, biting her neck and rubbing the
heavy white breasts that hung loose beneath her shift.
"Stupid slut," the fat man shouted up. "The king's not dead, that's only summoning bells. One tower
tolling. When the king dies, they ring every bell in the city."
"Here, quit your biting, or I'll ring your bells," the woman in the window said to the man behind her,
pushing him off with an elbow. "So who is it died, if not the king?"
"It's a summoning," the fat man repeated.
Two boys close to Arya's age scampered past, splashing through a puddle. The old woman cursed
them, but they kept right on going. Other people were moving too, heading up the hill to see what the
noise was about. Arya ran after the slower boy. "Where you going?" she shouted when she was right
behind him. "What's happening?"
He glanced back without slowing. "The gold cloaks is carryin' him to the sept."
"Who?" she yelled, running hard.


"The Hand! They'll be taking his head off, Buu says."
A passing wagon had left a deep rut in the street. The boy leapt over, but Arya never saw it. She tripped
and fell, face first, scraping her
knee open on a stone and smashing her fingers when her hands hit the hard-packed earth. Needle
tangled between her legs. She sobbed as she struggled to her knees. The thumb of her left hand was
covered with blood. When she sucked on it, she saw that half the thumbnail was gone, ripped off in her
fall. Her hands throbbed, and her knee was all bloody too.
"Make way!" someone shouted from the cross street. "Make wayfor my lords of Red4yne!" It was all
Arya could do to get out of the road before they ran her down, four guardsmen on huge horses,
pounding past at a gallop. They wore checked cloaks, blue-and-burgundy. Behind them, two young
lordlings rode side by side on a pair of chestnut mares alike as peas in a pod. Arya had seen them in the
bailey a hundred times; the Redwyne twins, Ser Horas and Ser Hobber, homely youths with orange hair
and square, freckled faces. Sansa and Jeyne Poole used to call them Ser Horror and Ser Slobber, and
giggle whenever they caught sight of them. They did not look funny now.
Everyone was moving in the same direction, all in a hurry to see what the ringing was all about. The bells
seemed louder now, clanging, calling. Arya joined the stream of people. Her thumb hurt so bad where
the nail had broken that it was all she could do not to cry. She bit her lip as she limped along, listening to
the excited voices around her.
"-the King's Hand, Lord Stark. They're carrying him up to Baelor's Sept."
"I heard he was dead."
"Soon enough, soon enough. Here, I got me a silver stag says they lop his head off."
"Past time, the traitor." The man spat.
Arya struggled to find a voice. "He never-" she started, but she was only a child and they talked right
over her.
"Fool! They ain't neither going to lop him. Since when do they knick traitors on the steps of the Great
Sept?"
"Well, they don't mean to anoint him no knight. I heard it was Stark killed old King Robert. Slit his throat
in the woods, and when they found him, he stood there cool as you please and said it was some old boar
did for His Grace."
"Ah, that's not true, it was his own brother did him, that Renly, him with his gold antlers."
"You shut your lying mouth, woman. You don't know what you're saying, his lordship's a fine true man."
By the time they reached the Street of the Sisters, they were packed in shoulder to shoulder. Arya let the
human current carry her along,


up to the top of Visenya's Hill. The white marble plaza was a solid mass of people, all yammering
excitedly at each other and straining to get closer to the Great Sept of Baelor. The bells were very loud
here.
Arya squirmed through the press, ducking between the legs of horses and clutching tight to her sword
stick. From the middle of the crowd, all she could see were arms and legs and stomachs, and the seven
slender towers of the sept looming overhead. She spotted a wood wagon and thought to climb up on the
back where she might be able to see, but others had the same idea. The teamster cursed at them and
drove them off with a crack of his whip.
Arya grew frantic. Forcing her way to the front of the crowd, she was shoved up against the stone of a
plinth. She looked up at Baelor the Blessed, the septon king. Sliding her stick sword through her belt,
Arya began to climb. Her broken thumbnail left smears of blood on the painted marble, but she made it
up, and wedged herself in between the king's feet.
That was when she saw her father.
Lord Eddard stood on the High Septon's pulpit outside the doors of the sept, supported between two of
the gold cloaks. He was dressed in a rich grey velvet doublet with a white wolf sewn on the front in
beads, and a grey wool cloak trimmed with fur, but he was thinner than Arya had ever seen him, his long
face drawn with pain. He was not standing so much as being held up; the cast over his broken leg was
grey and rotten.
The High Septon himself stood behind him, a squat man, grey with age and ponderously fat, wearing
long white robes and an immense crown of spun gold and crystal that wreathed his head with rainbows
whenever he moved.
Clustered around the doors of the sept, in front of the raised marble pulpit, were a knot of knights and
high lords. Joffrey was prominent among them, his raiment all crimson, silk and satin patterned with
prancing stags and roaring lions, a gold crown on his head. His queen mother stood beside him in a black
mourning gown slashed with crimson, a veil of black diamonds in her hair. Arya recognized the Hound,
wearing a snowy white cloak over his dark grey armor, with four of the Kingsguard around him. She saw
Varys the eunuch gliding among the lords in soft slippers and a patterned damask robe, and she thought
the short man with the silvery cape and pointed beard might be the one who had once fought a duel for
Mother.
And there in their midst was Sansa, dressed in sky-blue silk, with her long auburn hair washed and
curled and silver bracelets on her
wrists. Arya scowled, wondering what her sister was doing here, why she looked so happy.
A long line of gold-cloaked spearmen held back the crowd, commanded by a stout man in elaborate
armor, all black lacquer and gold filigree. His cloak had the metallic shimmer of true cloth-of-gold.
When the bell ceased to toll, a quiet slowly settled across the great plaza, and her father lifted his head
and began to speak, his voice so thin and weak she could scarcely make him out. People behind her
began to shout out, "What?" and "Louder!" The man in the black-andgold armor stepped up behind
Father and prodded him sharply. You leave him alone! Arya wanted to shout, but she knew no one


would listen. She chewed her lip.
Her father raised his voice and began again. "I am Eddard Stark, Lord of Winterfell and Hand of the
King," he said more loudly, his voice carrying across the plaza, "and I come before you to confess my
treason in the sight of gods and men."
"No, " Arya whimpered. Below her, the crowd began to scream and shout. Taunts and obscenities filled
the air. Sansa had hidden her face in her hands.
Her father raised his voice still higher, straining to be heard. "I betrayed the faith of my king and the trust
of my friend, Robert," he shouted. "I swore to defend and protect his children, yet before his blood was
cold, I plotted to depose and murder his son and seize the throne for myself. Let the High Septon and
Baelor the Beloved and the Seven bear witness to the truth of what I say: Joffrey Baratheon is the one
true heir to the Iron Throne, and by the grace of all the gods, Lord of the Seven Kingdoms and Protector
of the Realm."
A stone came sailing out of the crowd. Arya cried out as she saw her father hit. The gold cloaks kept
him from falling. Blood ran down his face from a deep gash across his forehead. More stones followed.
One struck the guard to Father's left. Another went clanging off the breastplate of the knight in the
black-and-gold armor. Two of the Kingsguard stepped in front of Joffrey and the queen, protecting them
with their shields.
Her hand slid beneath her cloak and found Needle in its sheath. She tightened her fingers around the
grip, squeezing as hard as she had ever squeezed anything. Please, gods, keep him safe, she prayed.
Don't let them hurt my father.
The High Septon knelt before Joffrey and his mother. "As we sin, so do we suffer," he intoned, in a deep
swelling voice much louder than Father's. "This man has confessed his crimes in the sight of gods and
men, here in this holy place." Rainbows danced around his head
as he lifted his hands in entreaty. "The gods are just, yet Blessed Baelor taught us that they are also
merciful. What shall be done with this traitor, Your Grace?"
A thousand voices were screaming, but Arya never heard them. Prince Joffrey . . . no, King Joffrey . . .
stepped out from behind the shields of his Kingsguard. "My mother bids me let Lord Eddard take the
black, and Lady Sansa has begged mercy for her father." He looked straight at Sansa then, and smiled,
and for a moment Arya thought that the gods had heard her prayer, until Joffrey turned back to the
crowd and said, "But they have the soft hearts of women. So long as I am your king, treason shall never
go unpunished. Ser Ilyn, bring me his head!"
The crowd roared, and Arya felt the statue of Baelor rock as they surged against it. The High Septon
clutched at the king's cape, and Varys came rushing over waving his arms, and even the queen was
saying something to him, but Joffrey shook his head. Lords and knights moved aside as he stepped
through, tall and fleshless, a skeleton in iron mail, the King's Justice. Dimly, as if from far off, Arya heard
her sister scream. Sansa had fallen to her knees, sobbing hysterically. Ser Ilyn Payne climbed the steps of
the pulpit.
Arya wriggled between Baelor's feet and threw herself into the crowd, drawing Needle. She landed on a
man in a butcher's apron, knocking him to the ground. Immediately someone slammed into her back and


she almost went down herself. Bodies closed in around her, stumbling and pushing, trampling on the poor
butcher. Arya slashed at them with Needle.
High atop the pulpit, Ser Ilyn Payne gestured and the knight in black-and-gold gave a command. The
gold cloaks flung Lord Eddard to the marble, with his head and chest out over the edge.
"Here, you!" an angry voice shouted at Arya, but she bowled past, shoving people aside, squirming
between them, slamming into anyone in her way. A hand fumbled at her leg and she hacked at it, kicked
at shins. A woman stumbled and Arya ran up her back, cutting to both sides, but it was no good, no
good, there were too many people, no sooner did she make a hole than it closed again. Someone
buffeted her aside. She could still hear Sansa screaming.
Ser Ilyn drew a two-handed greatsword from the scabbard on his back. As he lifted the blade above his
head, sunlight seemed to ripple and dance down the dark metal, glinting off an edge sharper than any
razor. ke, she thought, he has ke! Her tears streamed down her face, blinding her.
And then a hand shot out of the press and closed round her arm like
a wolf trap, so hard that Needle went flying from her hand. Arya was wrenched off her feet. She would
have fallen if he hadn't held her up, as easy as if she were a doll. A face pressed close to hers, long black
hair and tangled beard and rotten teeth. "Don't look!" a thick voice snarled at her.
"I . . . I . I . . . Arya sobbed.
The old man shook her so hard her teeth rattled. "Shut your mouth and close your eyes, boy." Dimly, as
if from far away, she heard a . . . a noise . . . a soft sighing sound, as if a million people had let out their
breath at once. The old man's fingers dug into her arm, stiff as iron. "Look at me. Yes, that's the way of
it, at me." Sour wine perfumed his breath. "Remember, boy?"
It was the smell that did it. Arya saw the matted greasy hair, the patched, dusty black cloak that covered
his twisted shoulders, the hard black eyes squinting at her. And she remembered the black brother who
had come to visit her father.
"Know me now, do you? There's a bright boy." He spat. "They're done here. You'll be coming with me,
and you'll be keeping your mouth shut." When she started to reply, he shook her again, even harder.
"Shut, I said."
The plaza was beginning to empty. The press dissolved around them as people drifted back to their
lives. But Arya's life was gone. Numb, she trailed along beside . . . Yoren, yes, his name is Yoren. She
did not recall him finding Needle, until he handed the sword back to her. "Hope you can use that, boy."
"I'm not-" she started.
He shoved her into a doorway, thrust dirty fingers through her hair, and gave it a twist, yanking her head
back. "-not a smart boy, that what you mean to say?"
He had a knife in his other hand.
As the blade flashed toward her face, Arya threw herself backward, kicking wildly, wrenching her head


from side to side, but he had her by the hair, so strong, she could feel her scalp tearing, and on her lips
the salt taste of tears.
BRAN
The oldest were men grown, seventeen and eighteen years from the day of their naming. One was past
twenty. Most were younger, sixteen or less.
Bran watched them from the balcony of Maester Luwin's turret, listening to them grunt and strain and
curse as they swung their staves and wooden swords. The yard was alive to the clack of wood on wood,
punctuated all too often by thwacks and yowls of pain when a blow struck leather or flesh. Ser Rodrik
strode among the boys, face reddening beneath his white whiskers, muttering at them one and all. Bran
had never seen the old knight look so fierce. "No," he kept saying. "No. No. No."
"They don't fight very well," Bran said dubiously. He scratched Summer idly behind the ears as the
direwolf tore at a haunch of meat. Bones crunched between his teeth.
"For a certainty," Maester Luwin agreed with a deep sigh. The maester was peering through his big
Myrish lens tube, measuring shadows and noting the position of the comet that hung low in the morning
sky. "Yet given time . . . Ser Rodrik has the truth of it, we need men to walk the walls. Your lord father
took the cream of his guard to King's Landing, and your brother took the rest, along with all the likely
lads for leagues around. Many will not come back to us, and we must needs find the men to take their
places."
Bran stared resentfully at the sweating boys below. "If I still had my legs, I could beat them all." He
remembered the last time he'd held a sword in his hand, when the king had come to Winterfell. It was
only a wooden sword, yet he'd knocked Prince Tommen down half a hundred times. "Ser Rodrik should
teach me to use a poleaxe. If I had a poleaxe with a big long haft, Hodor could be my legs. We could be
a knight together."
"I think that . . . unlikely," Maester Luwin said. "Bran, when a man fights, his arms and legs and thoughts
must be as one."


Below in the yard, Ser Rodrik was yelling. "You fight like a goose. He pecks you and you peck him
harder. Pany! Block the blow. Goose fighting will not suffice. If those were real swords, the first peck
would take your arm off!" One of the other boys laughed, and the old knight rounded on him. "You
laugh. You. Now that is gall. You fight like a hedgehog . . ."
"There was a knight once who couldn't see," Bran said stubbornly, as Ser Rodrik went on below. "Old
Nan told me about him. He had a long staff with blades at both ends and he could spin it in his hands and
chop two men at once."
"Symeon Star-Eyes," Luwin said as he marked numbers in a book. "When he lost his eyes, he put star
sapphires in the empty sockets, or so the singers claim. Bran, that is only a story, like the tales of Florian
the Fool. A fable from the Age of Heroes." The maester tsked. "You must put these dreams aside, they
will only break your heart."
The mention of dreams reminded him. "I dreamed about the crow again last night. The one with three
eyes. He flew into my bedchamber and told me to come with him, so I did. We went down to the crypts.
Father was there, and we talked. He was sad."
"And why was that?" Luwin peered through his tube.
"It was something to do about Jon, I think." The dream had been deeply disturbing, more so than any of
the other crow dreams. "Hodor won't go down into the crypts."
The maester had only been half listening, Bran could tell. He lifted his eye from the tube, blinking.
"Hodor won't . . . T'
"Go down into the crypts. When I woke, I told him to take me down, to see if Father was truly there. At
first he didn't know what I was saying, but I got him to the steps by telling him to go here and go there,
only then he wouldn't go down. He just stood on the top step and said 'Hodor,' like he was scared of the
dark, but I had a torch. It made me so mad I almost gave him a swat in the head, like Old Nan is always
doing." He saw the way the maester was frowning and hurriedly added, "I didn't, though."


"Good. Hodor is a man, not a mule to be beaten."
"In the dream I flew down with the crow, but I can't do that when I'm awake," Bran explained.
"Why would you want to go down to the crypts?"
"I told you. To look for Father."
The maester tugged at the chain around his neck, as he often did when he was uncomfortable. "Bran,
sweet child, one day Lord Eddard will sit below in stone, beside his father and his father's father and all
the Starks back to the old Kings in the North . . . but that will not be for many years, gods be good.
Your father is a prisoner of the queen in King's Landing. You will not find him in the crypts."
"He was there last night. I talked to him."
"Stubborn boy," the maester sighed, setting his book aside. "Would you like to go see?"
"I can't. Hodor won't go, and the steps are too narrow and twisty for Dancer."
"I believe I can solve that difficulty."
In place of Hodor, the wildling woman Osha was summoned. She was tall and tough and uncomplaining,
willing to go wherever she was commanded. "I lived my life beyond the Wall, a hole in the ground won't
fret me none, m'lords," she said.
"Summer, come," Bran called as she lifted him in wiry-strong arms. The direwolf left his bone and
followed as Osha carried Bran across the yard and down the spiral steps to the cold vault under the
earth. Maester Luwin went ahead with a torch. Bran did not even mind-too badly-that she carried him in


her arms and not on her back. Ser Rodrik had ordered Osha's chain struck off, since she had served
faithfully and well since she had been at Winterfell. She still wore the heavy iron shackles around her
ankles-a sign that she was not yet wholly trusted-but they did not hinder her sure strides down the steps.
Bran could not recall the last time he had been in the crypts. It had been before, for certain. When he
was little, he used to play down here with Robb and Jon and his sisters.
He wished they were here now; the vault might not have seemed so dark and scary. Summer stalked out
in the echoing gloom, then stopped, lifted his head, and sniffed the chill dead air. He bared his teeth and
crept backward, eyes glowing golden in the light of the maester's torch. Even Osha, hard as old iron,
seemed uncomfortable. "Grim folk, by the look of them," she said as she eyed the long row of granite
Starks on their stone thrones.
"They were the Kings of Winter," Bran whispered. Somehow it felt wrong to talk too loudly in this place.
Osha smiled. "Winter's got no king. If you'd seen it, you'd know that, summer boy."
"They were the Kings in the North for thousands of years," Maester Luwin said, lifting the torch high so
the light shone on the stone faces. Some were hairy and bearded, shaggy men fierce as the wolves that
crouched by their feet. Others were shaved clean, their features gaunt and sharp-edged as the iron
longswords across their laps. "Hard men for a hard time. Come." He strode briskly down the vault, past
the procession of stone pillars and the endless carved figures. A tongue of flame trailed back from the
upraised torch as he went.
The vault was cavernous, longer than Winterfell itself, and Jon had told him once that there were other
levels underneath, vaults even deeper and darker where the older kings were buried. It would not do to
lose the light. Summer refused to move from the steps, even when Osha followed the torch, Bran in her
arms.
"Do you recall your history, Bran?" the maester said as they walked. "Tell Osha who they were and
what they did, if you can."


He looked at the passing faces and the tales came back to him. The maester had told him the stories,
and Old Nan had made them come alive. "That one is Jon Stark. When the sea raiders landed in the east,
he drove them out and built the castle at White Harbor. His son was Rickard Stark, not my father's father
but another Rickard, he took the Neck away from the Marsh King and married his daughter. Theon
Stark's the real thin one with the long hair and the skinny beard. They called him the 'Hungry Wolf,'
because he was always at war. That's a Brandon, the tall one with the dreamy face, he was Brandon the
Shipwright, because he loved the sea. His tomb is empty. He tried to sail west across the Sunset Sea and
was never seen again. His son was Brandon the Burner, because he put the torch to all his father's ships
in grief. There's Rodrik Stark, who won Bear Island in a wrestling match and gave it to the Mormonts.
And that's Torrhen Stark, the King Who Knelt. He was the last King in the North and the first Lord of
Winterfell, after he yielded to Aegon the Conqueror. Oh, there, he's Cregan Stark. He fought with Prince
Aemon once, and the Dragonknight said he'd never faced a finer swordsman." They were almost at the
end now, and Bran felt a sadness creeping over him. "And there's my grandfather, Lord Rickard, who
was beheaded by Mad King Aerys. His daughter Lyanna and his son Brandon are in the tombs beside
him. Not me, another Brandon, my father's brother.
They're not supposed to have statues, that's only for the lords and the kings, but my father loved them so
much he had them done."
"The maid's a fair one," Osha said.
"Robert was betrothed to marry her, but Prince Rhaegar carried her off and raped her," Bran explained.
"Robert fought a war to win her back. He killed Rhaegar on the Trident with his hammer, but Lyanna
died and he never got her back at all."
"A sad tale," said Osha, "but those empty holes are sadder."
"Lord Eddard's tomb, for when his time comes," Maester Luwin said. "Is this where you saw your father
in your dream, Bran?"
"Yes." The memory made him shiver. He looked around the vault uneasily, the hairs on the back of his
neck bristling. Had he heard a noise? Was there someone here?


Maester Luwin stepped toward the open sepulchre, torch in hand. "As you see, he's not here. Nor will
he be, for many a year. Dreams are only dreams, child." He thrust his arm into the blackness inside the
tomb, as into the mouth of some great beast. "Do you see? It's quite empt-"
The darkness sprang at him, snarling.
Bran saw eyes like green fire, a flash of teeth, fur as black as the pit around them. Maester Luwin yelled
and threw up his hands. The torch went flying from his fingers, caromed off the stone face of Brandon
Stark, and tumbled to the statue's feet, the flames licking up his legs. In the drunken shifting torchlight,
they saw Luwin struggling with the direwolf, beating at his muzzle with one hand while the jaws closed on
the other.
"Summer!" Bran screamed.
And Summer came, shooting from the dimness behind them, a leaping shadow. He slammed into
Shaggydog and knocked him back, and the two direwolves rolled over and over in a tangle of grey and
black fur, snapping and biting at each other, while Maester Luwin struggled to his knees, his arm torn and
bloody. Osha propped Bran up against Lord Rickard's stone wolf as she hurried to assist the maester. In
the light of the guttering torch, shadow wolves twenty feet tall fought on the wall and roof.
"Shaggy," a small voice called. When Bran looked up, his little brother was standing in the mouth of
Father's tomb. With one final snap at Summer's face, Shaggydog broke off and bounded to Rickon's
side. "You let my father be," Rickon warned Luwin. "You let him be."
"Rickon," Bran said softly. "Father's not here."
"Yes he is. I saw him." Tears glistened on Rickon's face. "I saw him last night."
"In your dream ... ?'


Rickon nodded. "You leave him. You leave him be. He's coming home now, like he promised. He's
coming home."
Bran had never seen Maester Luwin took so uncertain before. Blood dripped down his arm where
Shaggydog had shredded the wool of his sleeve and the flesh beneath. "Osha, the torch," he said, biting
through his pain, and she snatched it up before it went out. Soot stains blackened both legs of his uncle's
likeness. "That . . . that beast," Luwin went on, "is supposed to be chained up in the kennels."
Rickon patted Shaggydog's muzzle, damp with blood. "I let him loose. He doesn't like chains." He licked
at his fingers.
"Rickon," Bran said, "would you like to come with me?"
"No. I like it here."
"It's dark here. And cold."
"I'm not afraid. I have to wait for Father."
"You can wait with me," Bran said. "We'll wait together, you and me and our wolves." Both of the
direwolves were licking wounds now, and would bear close watching.
"Bran," the maester said firmly, "I know you mean well, but Shaggydog is too wild to run loose. I'm the
third man he's savaged. Give him the freedom of the castle and it's only a question of time before he kills
someone. The truth is hard, but the wolf has to be chained, or ." He hesitated.
or killed, Bran thought, but what he said was, "He was not made for chains. We will wait in your tower,
all of us."


"That is quite impossible," Maester Luwin said.
Osha grinned. "The boy's the lordling here, as I recall." She handed Luwin back his torch and scooped
Bran up into her arms again. "The maester's tower it is."
"Will you come, Rickon?"
His brother nodded. "If Shaggy comes too," he said, running after Osha and Bran, and there was nothing
Maester Luwin could do but follow, keeping a wary eye on the wolves.
Maester Luwin's turret was so cluttered that it seemed to Bran a wonder that he ever found anything.
Tottering piles of books covered tables and chairs, rows of stoppered jars lined the shelves, candle stubs
and puddles of dried wax dotted the furniture, the bronze Myrish lens tube sat on a tripod by the terrace
door, star charts hung from the walls, shadow maps lay scattered among the rushes, papers, quills, and
pots of inks were everywhere, and all of it was spotted with droppings from the ravens in the rafters.
Their strident quorks drifted down from above as Osha washed and cleaned and bandaged the maester's
wounds, under Luwin's terse instruction. "This is folly," the small grey man said while she dabbed at the
wolf bites with a stinging ointment. "I agree that it is odd that both you boys dreamed the same dream,
yet when you stop to consider it, it's only natural. You miss your lord father, and you know that he is a
captive. Fear can fever a man's mind and give him queer thoughts. Rickon is too young to comprehend-"
"I'm four now," Rickon said. He was peeking through the lens tube at the gargoyles on the First Keep.
The direwolves sat on opposite sides of the large round room, licking their wounds and gnawing on
bones.
"-too young, and-ooh, seven hells, that burns, no, don't stop, more. Too young, as I say, but you, Bran,
you're old enough to know that dreams are only dreams."
"Some are, some aren't." Osha poured pale red firemilk into a long gash. Luwin gasped. "The children of
the forest could tell you a thing or two about dreaming."


Tears were streaming down the maester's face, yet he shook his head doggedly. "The children . . . live
only in dreams. Now. Dead and gone. Enough, that's enough. Now the bandages. Pads and then wrap,
and make it tight, I'll be bleeding."
"Old Nan says the children knew the songs of the trees, that they could fly like birds and swim like fish
and talk to the animals," Bran said. "She says that they made music so beautiful that it made you cry like a
little baby just to hear it."
"And all this they did with magic," Maester Luwin said, distracted. "I wish they were here now. A spell
would heal my arm less painfully, and they could talk to Shaggydog and tell him not to bite." He gave the
big black wolf an angry glance out of the corner of his eye. "Take a lesson, Bran. The man who trusts in
spells is dueling with a glass sword. As the children did. Here, let me show you something." He stood
abruptly, crossed the room, and returned with a green jar in his good hand. "Have a look at these," he
said as he pulled the stopper and shook out a handful of shiny black arrowheads.
Bran picked one up. "It's made of glass." Curious, Rickon drifted closer to peer over the table.
"Dragonglass," Osha named it as she sat down beside Luwin, bandagings in hand.
"Obsidian," Maester Luwin insisted, holding out his wounded arm. "Forged in the fires of the gods, far
below the earth. The children of the forest hunted with that, thousands of years ago. The children worked
no metal. In place of mail, they wore long shirts of woven
leaves and bound their legs in bark, so they seemed to melt into the wood. In place of swords, they
carried blades of obsidian."
"And still do." Osha placed soft pads over the bites on the maester's forearm and bound them tight with
long strips of linen.


Bran held the arrowhead up close. The black glass was slick and shiny. He thought it beautiful. "Can I
keep one?"
"As you wish," the maester said.
"I want one too," Rickon said. "I want four. I'm four."
Luwin made him count them out. "Careful, they're still sharp. Don't cut yourself."
"Tell me about the children," Bran said. It was important.
"What do you wish to know?"
"Everything."
Maester Luwin tugged at his chain collar where it chafed against his neck. "They were people of the
Dawn Age, the very first, before kings and kingdoms," he said. "In those days, there were no castles or
holdfasts, no cities, not so much as a market town to be found between here and the sea of Dorne. There
were no men at all. Only the children of the forest dwelt in the lands we now call the Seven Kingdoms.
"They were a people dark and beautiful, small of stature, no taller than children even when grown to
manhood. They lived in the depths of the wood, in caves and crannogs and secret tree towns. Slight as
they were, the children were quick and graceful. Male and female hunted together, with weirwood bows
and flying snares. Their gods were the gods of the forest, stream, and stone, the old gods whose names
are secret. Their wise men were called greenseers, and carved strange faces in the weirwoods to keep
watch on the woods. How long the children reigned here or where they came from, no man can know.
"But some twelve thousand years ago, the First Men appeared from the east, crossing the Broken Arm
of Dorne before it was broken. They came with bronze swords and great leathern shields, riding horses.
No horse had ever been seen on this side of the narrow sea. No doubt the children were as frightened by
the horses as the First Men were by the faces in the trees. As the First Men carved out holdfasts and
farms, they cut down the faces and gave them to the fire. Horrorstruck, the children went to war. The old


songs say that the greenseers used dark magics to make the seas rise and sweep away the land,
shattering the Arm, but it was too late to close the door. The wars went on until the earth ran red with
blood of men and children both, but more children than men, for men were bigger and stronger, and
wood and stone and obsidian make a poor match for bronze. Finally the wise of both races prevailed,
and the chiefs and heroes of the First Men met
the greenseers and wood dancers amidst the weirwood groves of a small island in the great lake called
Gods Eye.
"There they forged the Pact. The First Men were given the coastlands, the high plains and bright
meadows, the mountains and bogs, but the deep woods were to remain forever the children's, and no
more weirwoods were to be put to the axe anywhere in the realm. So the gods might bear witness to the
signing, every tree on the island was given a face, and afterward, the sacred order of green men was
formed to keep watch over the Isle of Faces.
"The Pact began four thousand years of friendship between men and children. In time, the First Men
even put aside the gods they had brought with them, and took up the worship of the secret gods of the
wood. The signing of the Pact ended the Dawn Age, and began the Age of Heroes."
Bran's fist curled around the shiny black arrowhead. "But the children of the forest are all gone now, you
said."
"Here, they are," said Osha, as she bit off the end of the last bandage with her teeth. "North of the Wall,
things are different. That's where the children went, and the giants, and the other old races."
Maester Luwin sighed. "Woman, by rights you ought to be dead or in chains. The Starks have treated
you more gently than you deserve. It is unkind to repay them for their kindness by filling the boys' heads
with folly."
"Tell me where they went," Bran said. "I want to know."


"Me too," Rickon echoed.
"Oh, very well," Luwin muttered. "So long as the kingdoms of the First Men held sway, the Pact
endured, all through the Age of Heroes and the Long Night and the birth of the Seven Kingdoms, yet
finally there came a time, many centuries later, when other peoples crossed the narrow sea.
"The Andals were the first, a race of tall, fair-haired warriors who came with steel and fire and the
seven-pointed star of the new gods painted on their chests. The wars lasted hundreds of years, but in the
end the six southron kingdoms all fell before them. Only here, where the King in the North threw back
every army that tried to cross the Neck, did the rule of the First Men endure. The Andals burnt out the
weirwood groves, hacked down the faces, slaughtered the children where they found them, and
everywhere proclaimed the triumph of the Seven over the old gods. So the children fled north-"
Summer began to howl.
Maester Luwin broke off, startled. When Shaggydog bounded to his feet and added his voice to his
brother's, dread clutched at Bran's
heart. "It's coming, " he whispered, with the certainty of despair. He had known it since last night, he
realized, since the crow had led him down into the crypts to say farewell. He had known it, but he had
not believed. He had wanted Maester Luwin to be right. The crow, he thought, the three-eyed crow . . .
The howling stopped as suddenly as it had begun. Summer padded across the tower floor to
Shaggydog, and began to lick at a mat of bloody fur on the back of his brother's neck. From the window
came a flutter of wings.
A raven landed on the grey stone sill, opened its beak, and gave a harsh, raucous rattle of distress.
Rickon began to cry. His arrowheads fell from his hand one by one and clattered on the floor. Bran
pulled him close and hugged him.


Maester Luwin stared at the black bird as if it were a scorpion with feathers. He rose, slow as a
sleepwalker, and moved to the window. When he whistled, the raven hopped onto his bandaged
forearm. There was dried blood on its wings. "A hawk," Luwin murmured, "perhaps an owl. Poor thing,
a wonder it got through." He took the letter from its leg.
Bran found himself shivering as the maester unrolled the paper. "What is it?" he said, holding his brother
all the harder.
"You know what it is, boy," Osha said, not unkindly. She put her hand on his head.
Maester Luwin looked up at them numbly, a small grey man with blood on the sleeve of his grey wool
robe and tears in his bright grey eyes. "My lords," he said to the sons, in a voice gone hoarse and
shrunken, "we . . . we shall need to find a stonecarver who knew his likeness well . . ."
SANSA
In the tower room at the heart of Maegor's Holdfast, Sansa gave herself to the darkness.
She drew the curtains around her bed, slept, woke weeping,
and slept again. When she could not sleep she lay under her blankets shivering with grief. Servants came
and went, bringing meals, but the sight of food was more than she could bear. The dishes piled up on the
table beneath her window, untouched and spoiling, until the servants took them away again.
Sometimes her sleep was leaden and dreamless, and she woke from it more tired than when she had
closed her eyes. Yet those were the best times, for when she dreamed, she dreamed of Father. Waking
or sleeping, she saw him, saw the gold cloaks fling him down, saw Ser Ilyn striding forward, unsheathing
Ice from the scabbard on his back, saw the moment . . . the moment when . . . she had wanted to look
away, she had wanted to, her legs had gone out from under her and she had fallen to her knees, yet
somehow she could not turn her head, and all the people were screaming and shouting, and her prince


had smiled at her, he'd smiled and she'd felt safe, but only for a heartbeat, until he said those words, and
her father's legs . . . that was what she remembered, his legs, the way they'd jerked when Ser Ilyn . . .
when the sword . . .
Perhaps I will die too, she told herself, and the thought did not seem
so terrible to her. If she flung herself from the window, she could put an end to her suffering, and in the
years to come the singers would write songs of her grief. Her body would lie on the stones below,
broken and innocent, shaming all those who had betrayed her. Sansa went so far as to cross the
bedchamber and throw open the shutters . . . but then her courage left her, and she ran back to her bed,
sobbing.
The serving girls tried to talk to her when they brought her meals, but she never answered them. Once
Grand Maester Pycelle came with a box of flasks and bottles, to ask if she was ill. He felt her brow,
made her undress, and touched her all over while her bedmaid held her down. When he left he gave her a
potion of honeywater and herbs and told her to drink a swallow every night. She drank it all right then
and went back to sleep.
She dreamt of footsteps on the tower stair, an ominous scraping of leather on stone as a man climbed
slowly toward her bedchamber, step by step. All she could do was huddle behind her door and listen,
trembling, as he came closer and closer. It was Ser Ilyn Payne, she knew, coming for her with Ice in his
hand, coming to take her head. There was no place to run, no place to hide, no way to bar the door.
Finally the footsteps stopped and she knew he was just outside, standing there silent with his dead eyes
and his long pocked face. That was when she realized she was naked. She crouched down, trying to
cover herself with her hands, as her door began to swing open, creaking, the point of the greatsword
poking through . . .
She woke murmuring, "Please, please, I'll be good, I'll be good, please don't," but there was no one to
hear.
When they finally came for her in truth, Sansa never heard their footsteps. It was Joffrey who opened
her door, not Ser Ilyn but the boy who had been her prince. She was in bed, curled up tight, her curtains
drawn, and she could not have said if it was noon or midnight. The first thing she heard was the slam of
the door. Then her bed hangings were yanked back, and she threw up a hand against the sudden light
and saw them standing over her.


"You will attend me in court this afternoon," Joffrey said. "See that you bathe and dress as befits my
betrothed." Sandor Clegane stood at his shoulder in a plain brown doublet and green mantle, his burned
face hideous in the morning light. Behind them were two knights of the Mngsguard in long white satin
cloaks.
Sansa drew her blanket up to her chin to cover herself. "No," she whimpered, "please . . . leave me be."
"If you won't rise and dress yourself, my Hound will do it for you," Joffrey said.
"I beg of you, my prince
"I'm king now. Dog, get her out of bed."
Sandor Clegane scooped her up around the waist and lifted her off the featherbed as she struggled
feebly. Her blanket fell to the floor. Underneath she had only a thin bedgown to cover her nakedness.
"Do as you're bid, child," Clegane said. "Dress." He pushed her toward her wardrobe, almost gently.
Sansa backed away from them. "I did as the queen asked, I wrote the letters, I wrote what she told me.
You promised you'd be merciful. Please, let me go home. I won't do any treason, I'll be good, I swear it,
I don't have traitor's blood, I don't. I only want to go home." Remembering her courtesies, she lowered
her head. "As it please you," she finished weakly.
"It does not please me," Joffrey said. "Mother says I'm still to marry you, so you'll stay here, and you'll
obey."
"I don't want to marry you," Sansa wailed. "You chopped off my father's head!"


"He was a traitor. I never promised to spare him, only that I'd be merciful, and I was. If he hadn't been
your father, I would have had him torn or flayed, but I gave him a clean death."
Sansa stared at him, seeing him for the first time. He was wearing a padded crimson doublet patterned
with lions and a cloth-of-gold cape with a high collar that framed his face. She wondered how she could
ever have thought him handsome. His lips were as soft and red as the worms you found after a rain, and
his eyes were vain and cruel. "I hate you," she whispered.
King Joffrey's face hardened. "My mother tells me that it isn't fitting that a king should strike his wife. Ser
Meryn."
The knight was on her before she could think, yanking back her hand as she tried to shield her face and
backhanding her across the ear with a gloved fist. Sansa did not remember failing, yet the next she knew
she was sprawled on one knee amongst the rushes. Her head was ringing. Ser Meryn Trant stood over
her, with blood on the knuckles of his white silk glove.
"Will you obey now, or shall I have him chastise you again?"
Sansa's ear felt numb. She touched it, and her fingertips came away wet and red. "I . . . as . . . as you
command, my lord."
"Your Grace, " Joffrey corrected her. "I shall look for you in court." He turned and left.
Ser Meryn and Ser Arys followed him out, but Sandor Clegane
650 GLORGL R.R. MARTIN
lingered long enough to yank her roughly to her feet. "Save yourself some pain, girl, and give him what he
wants."


"What . . . what does he want? Please, tell me."
"He wants you to smile and smell sweet and be his lady love," the Hound rasped. "He wants to hear you
recite all your pretty little words the way the septa taught you. He wants you to love him . . . and fear
him."
After he was gone, Sansa sank back onto the rushes, staring at the wall until two of her bedmaids crept
timidly into the chamber. "I will need hot water for my bath, please," she told them, "and perfume, and
some powder to hide this bruise." The right side of her face was swollen and beginning to ache, but she
knew Joffrey would want her to be beautiful.
The hot water made her think of Winterfell, and she took strength from that. She had not washed since
the day her father died, and she was startled at how filthy the water became. Her maids sluiced the blood
off her face, scrubbed the dirt from her back, washed her hair and brushed it out until it sprang back in
thick auburn curls. Sansa did not speak to them, except to give them commands; they were Lannister
servants, not her own, and she did not trust them. When the time came to dress, she chose the green silk
gown that she had worn to the tourney. She recalled how gallant Joff had been to her that night at the
feast. Perhaps it would make him remember as well, and treat her more gently.
She drank a glass of buttermilk and nibbled at some sweet biscuits as she waited, to settle her stomach.
It was midday when Ser Meryn returned. He had donned his white armor; a shirt of enameled scales
chased with gold, a tall helm with a golden sunburst crest, greaves and gorget and gauntlet and boots of
gleaming plate, a heavy wool cloak clasped with a golden lion. His visor had been removed from his
helm, to better show his dour face; pouchy bags under his eyes, a wide sour mouth, rusty hair spotted
with grey. "My lady," he said, bowing, as if he had not beaten her bloody only three hours past. "His
Grace has instructed me to escort you to the throne room."
"Did he instruct you to hit me if I refused to come?"
"Are you refusing to come, my lady?" The look he gave her was without expression. He did not so much
as glance at the bruise he had left her.
He did not hate her, Sansa realized; neither did he love her. He felt nothing for her at all. She was only a
. . . a thing to him. "No," she said, rising. She wanted to rage, to hurt him as he'd hurt her, to warn him
that when she was queen she would have him exiled if he ever


dared strike her again ... but she remembered what the Hound had told her, so all she said was, "I shall
do whatever His Grace commands."
"As I do," he replied.
"Yes . . . but you are no true knight, Ser Meryn."
Sandor Clegane would have laughed at that, Sansa knew. Other men might have cursed her, warned her
to keep silent, even begged for her forgiveness. Ser Meryn Trant did none of these. Ser Meryn Trant
simply did not care.
The balcony was deserted save for Sansa. She stood with her head bowed, fighting to hold back her
tears, while below Joffrey sat on his Iron Throne and dispensed what it pleased him to call justice. Nine
cases out of ten seemed to bore him; those he allowed his council to handle, squirming restlessly while
Lord Baelish, Grand Maester Pycelle, or Queen Cersei resolved the matter. When he did choose to
make a ruling, though, not even his queen mother could sway him.
A thief was brought before him and he had Ser Ilyn chop his hand off, right there in court. Two knights
came to him with a dispute about some land, and he decreed that they should duel for it on the morrow.
"To the death," he added. A woman fell to her knees to plead for the head of a man executed as a traitor.
She had loved him, she said, and she wanted to see him decently buried. "If you loved a traitor, you must
be a traitor too," Joffrey said. Two gold cloaks dragged her off to the dungeons.
Frog-faced Lord Slynt sat at the end of the council table wearing a black velvet doublet and a shiny
cloth-of-gold cape, nodding with approval every time the king pronounced a sentence. Sansa stared hard
at his ugly face, remembering how he had thrown down her father for Ser Ilyn to behead, wishing she
could hurt him, wishing that some hero would throw him down and cut off his head. But a voice inside her
whispered, There are no heroes, and she remembered what Lord Petyr had said to her, here in this very
hall. "Life is not a song, sweetling," he'd told her. "You may learn that one day to your sorrow." In life, the
monsters win, she told herself, and now it was the Hound's voice she heard, a cold rasp, metal on stone.
"Save yourself some pain, girl, and give him what he wants."


The last case was a plump tavern singer, accused of making a song that ridiculed the late King Robert.
Joff commanded them to fetch his woodharp and ordered him to perform the song for the court. The
singer wept and swore he would never sing that song again, but the king insisted. It was sort of a funny
song, all about Robert fighting with a pig. The pig was the boar who'd killed him, Sansa knew, but in
some
verses it almost sounded as if he were singing about the queen. When the song was done, Joffrey
announced that he'd decided to be merciful. The singer could keep either his fingers or his tongue. He
would have a day to make his choice. Janos Slynt nodded.
That was the final business of the afternoon, Sansa saw with relief, but her ordeal was not yet done.
When the herald's voice dismissed the court, she fled the balcony, only to find Joffrey waiting for her at
the base of the curving stairs. The Hound was with him, and Ser Meryn as well. The young king
examined her critically, top to bottom. "You look much better than you did."
"Thank you, Your Grace," Sansa said. Hollow words, but they made him nod and smile.
"Walk with me," Jofftey commanded, offering her his arm. She had no choice but to take it. The touch of
his hand would have thrilled her once; now it made her flesh crawl. "My name day will be here soon,"
Joffrey said as they slipped out the rear of the throne room. "There will be a great feast, and gifts. What
are you going to give me?"
"I . . . I had not thought, my lord."
"Your Grace," he said sharply. "You truly are a stupid girl, aren't you? My mother says so."
"She does?" After all that had happened, his words should have lost their power to hurt her, yet
somehow they had not. The queen had always been so kind to her.
"Oh, yes. She worries about our children, whether they'll be stupid like you, but I told her not to trouble
herself." The king gestured, and Ser Meryn opened a door for them.


"Thank you, Your Grace," she murmured. The Hound was right, she thought, I am only a little bird,
repeating the words they taught me. The sun had fallen below the western wall, and the stones of the Red
Keep glowed dark as blood.
"I'll get you with child as soon as you're able," Joffrey said as he escorted her across the practice yard.
"If the first one is stupid, I'll chop off your head and find a smarter wife. When do you think you'll be able
to have children?"
Sansa could not look at him, he shamed her so. "Septa Mordane says most . . . most highborn girls have
their flowering at twelve or thirteen."
Joffrey nodded. "This way." He led her into the gatehouse, to the base of the steps that led up to the
battlements.
Sansa jerked back away from him, trembling. Suddenly she knew where they were going. "No, " she
said, her voice a frightened gasp. "Please, no, don't make me, I beg you . . ."
Joffrey pressed his lips together. "I want to show you what happens to traitors."
Sansa shook her head wildly. "I won't. I won't."
"I can have Ser Meryn drag you up," he said. "You won't like that. You had better do what I say."
Joffrey reached for her, and Sansa cringed away from him, backing into the Hound.
"Do it, girl," Sandor Clegane told her, pushing her back toward the king. His mouth twitched on the
burned side of his face and Sansa could almost hear the rest of it. He'll have you up there no matter what,
so give him what he wants.


She forced herself to take King Joffrey's hand. The climb was something out of a nightmare; every step
was a struggle, as if she were pulling her feet out of ankle-deep mud, and there were more steps than she
would have believed, a thousand thousand steps, and horror waiting on the ramparts.
From the high battlements of the gatehouse, the whole world spread out below them. Sansa could see
the Great Sept of Baelor on Visenya's hill, where her father had died. At the other end of the Street of
the Sisters stood the fire-blackened ruins of the Dragonpit. To the west, the swollen red sun was
half-hidden behind the Gate of the Gods. The salt sea was at her back, and to the south was the fish
market and the docks and the swirling torrent of the Blackwater Rush. And to the north . . .
She turned that way, and saw only the city, streets and alleys and hills and bottoms and more streets and
more alleys and the stone of distant walls. Yet she knew that beyond them was open country, farms and
fields and forests, and beyond that, north and north and north again, stood Winterfell.
"What are you looking at?" Joffrey said. "This is what I wanted you to see, right here."
A thick stone parapet protected the outer edge of the rampart, reaching as high as Sansa's chin, with
crenellations cut into it every five feet for archers. The heads were mounted between the crenels, along
the top of the wall, impaled on iron spikes so they faced out over the city. Sansa had noted them the
moment she'd stepped out onto the wallwalk, but the river and the bustling streets and the setting sun
were ever so much prettier. He can make me look at the heads, she told herself, but he can't make me
see them.
"This one is your father," he said. "This one here. Dog, turn it around so she can see him."
Sandor Clegane took the head by the hair and turned it. The severed head had been dipped in tar to
preserve it longer. Sansa looked at
it calmly, not seeing it at all. It did not really look like Lord Eddard, she thought; it did not even look
reaL "How long do I have to look?"


Joffrey seemed disappointed. "Do you want to see the rest?" There was a long row of them.
"If it please Your Grace."
Joffrey marched her down the wallwalk, past a dozen more heads and two empty spikes. "I'm saving
those for my uncle Stannis and my uncle Renly," he explained. The other heads had been dead and
mounted much longer than her father. Despite the tar, most were long past being recognizable. The king
pointed to one and said, "That's your septa there," but Sansa could not even have told that it was a
woman. The jaw had rotted off her face, and birds had eaten one ear and most of a cheek.
Sansa had wondered what had happened to Septa Mordane, although she supposed she had known all
along. "Why did you kill her?" she asked. "She was godsworn . . ."
"She was a traitor." Joffrey looked pouty; somehow she was upsetting him. "You haven't said what you
mean to give me for my name day. Maybe I should give you something instead, would you like that?"
"If it please you, my lord," Sansa said.
When he smiled, she knew he was mocking her. "Your brother is a traitor too, you know." He turned
Septa Mordane's head back around. "I remember your brother from Winterfell. My dog called him the
lord of the wooden sword. Didn't you, dog?"
"Did IT' the Hound replied. "I don't recall."
Joffrey gave a petulant shrug. "Your brother defeated my uncle Jaime. My mother says it was treachery
and deceit. She wept when she heard. Women are all weak, even her, though she pretends she isn't. She
says we need to stay in King's Landing in case my other uncles attack, but I don't care. After my name
day feast, I'm going to raise a host and kill your brother myself. That's what I'll give you, Lady Sansa.
Your brother's head."
A kind of madness took over her then, and she heard herself say, "Maybe my brother will give me your


head."
Joffrey scowled. "You must never mock me like that. A true wife does not mock her lord. Ser Meryn,
teach her."
This time the knight grasped her beneath the jaw and held her head still as he struck her. He hit her
twice, left to right, and harder, right to left. Her lip split and blood ran down her chin, to mingle with the
salt of her tears.
"You shouldn't be crying all the time," Joffrey told her. "You're more pretty when you smile and laugh."
Sansa made herself smile, afraid that he would have Ser Meryn hit her again if she did not, but it was no
good, the king still shook his head. "Wipe off the blood, you're all messy."
The outer parapet came up to her chin, but along the inner edge of the walk was nothing, nothing but a
long plunge to the bailey seventy or eighty feet below. All it would take was a shove, she told herself. He
was standing right there, right there, smirking at her with those fat wormlips. You could do it, she told
herself. You could. Do it right now. It wouldn't even matter if she went over with him. It wouldn't matter
at all.
"Here, girl." Sandor Clegane knelt before her, between her and Joffrey. With a delicacy surprising in
such a big man, he dabbed at the blood welling from her broken lip.
The moment was gone. Sansa lowered her eyes. "Thank you," she said when he was done. She was a
good girl, and always remembered her courtesies.
DAENERYS


Wings shadowed her fever dreams. "You don't want to wake the dragon, do you?"
She was walking down a long hall beneath high stone arches. She could not look behind her, must not
look behind her. There was a door ahead of her, tiny with distance, but even from afar, she saw that it
was painted red. She walked faster, and her bare feet left bloody footprints on the stone.
"You don't want to wake the dragon, do you?"
She saw sunlight on the Dothraki sea, the living plain, rich with the smells of earth and death. Wind
stirred the grasses, and they rippled like water. Drogo held her in strong arms, and his hand stroked her
sex and opened her and woke that sweet wetness that was his alone, and the stars smiled down on them,
stars in a daylight sky. "Home," she whispered as he entered her and filled her with his seed, but suddenly
the stars were gone, and across the blue sky swept the great wings, and the world took flame.
". . . don't want to wake the dragon, do you?"
Ser Jorah's face was drawn and sorrowful. "Rhaegar was the last dragon," he told her. He warmed
translucent hands over a glowing brazier where stone eggs smouldered red as coals. One moment he was
there and the next he was fading, his flesh colorless, less substantial than the wind. "The last dragon," he
whispered, thin as a wisp, and was
gone. She felt the dark behind her, and the red door seemed farther away than ever.
". . . don't want to wake the dragon, do you?"
Viserys stood before her, screaming. "The dragon does not beg, slut. You do not command the dragon.
I am the dragon, and I will be crowned." The molten gold trickled down his face like wax, burning deep
channels in his flesh. "I am the dragon and I will be crowned!" he shrieked, and his fingers snapped like
snakes, biting at her nipples, pinching, twisting, even as his eyes burst and ran like jelly down seared and
blackened cheeks.


". . . don't want to wake the dragon
The red door was so far ahead of her, and she could feel the icy breath behind, sweeping up on her. If it
caught her she would die a death that was more than death, howling forever alone in the darkness. She
began to run.
". . . don't want to wake the dragon
She could feel the heat inside her, a terrible burning in her womb. Her son was tall and proud, with
Drogo's copper skin and her own silver-gold hair, violet eyes shaped like almonds. And he smiled for her
and began to lift his hand toward hers, but when he opened his mouth the fire poured out. She saw his
heart burning through his chest, and in an instant he was gone, consumed like a moth by a candle, turned
to ash. She wept for her child, the promise of a sweet mouth on her breast, but her tears turned to steam
as they touched her skin.
". . . want to wake the dragon . . . "
Ghosts lined the hallway, dressed in the faded raiment of kings. In their hands were swords of pale fire.
They had hair of silver and hair of gold and hair of platinum white, and their eyes were opal and amethyst,
tourmaline and jade. "Faster," they cried, "faster, faster." She raced, her feet melting the stone wherever
they touched. "Faster!" the ghosts cried as one, and she screamed and threw herself forward. A great
knife of pain ripped down her back, and she felt her skin tear open and smelled the stench of burning
blood and saw the shadow of wings. And Daenerys Targaryen flew.
wake the dragon
The door loomed before her, the red door, so close, so close, the hall was a blur around her, the cold
receding behind. And now the stone was gone and she flew across the Dothraki sea, high and higher, the
green rippling beneath, and all that lived and breathed fled in terror from the shadow of her wings. She
could smell home, she could see it, there, just beyond that door, green fields and great stone houses and
arms to keep her warm, there. She threw open the door.


"... the dragon . . . "
And saw her brother Rhaegar, mounted on a stallion as black as his armor. Fire glimmered red through
the narrow eye slit of his helm. "The last dragon," Ser Jorah's voice whispered faintly. "The last, the last."
Dany lifted his polished black visor. The face within was her own.
After that, for a long time, there was only the pain, the fire within her, and the whisperings of stars.
She woke to the taste of ashes.
"No," she moaned, "no, please."
"Khaleesi?" Jhiqui hovered over her, a frightened doe.
The tent was drenched in shadow, still and close. Flakes of ash drifted upward from a brazier, and Dany
followed them with her eyes through the smoke hole above. Flying, she thought. I had wings, I was flying.
But it was only a dream. "Help me," she whispered, struggling to rise. "Bring me . . ." Her voice was raw
as a wound, and she could not think what she wanted. Why did she hurt so much? It was as if her body
had been torn to pieces and remade from the scraps. "I want . . ."
"Yes, Khaleesi." Quick as that Jhiqui was gone, bolting from the tent, shouting. Dany needed . . .
something . . . someone . . . what? It was important, she knew. It was the only thing in the world that
mattered. She rolled onto her side and got an elbow under her, fighting the blanket tangled about her
legs. It was so hard to move. The world swam dizzily. I have to . . .
They found her on the carpet, crawling toward her dragon eggs. Ser Jorah Mormont lifted her in his
arms and carried her back to her sleeping silks, while she struggled feebly against him. Over his shoulder
she saw her three handmaids, Jhogo with his little wisp of mustache, and the flat broad face of Mirri Maz
Duur. "I must," she tried to tell them, "I have to . . ."


. . . sleep, Princess," Ser Jorah said. No," Dany said. "Please. Please."
"Yes." He covered her with silk, though she was burning. "Sleep and grow strong again, Khaleesi. Come
back to us." And then Mirri Maz Duur was there, the maegi, tipping a cup against her lips. She tasted
sour milk, and something else, something thick and bitter. Warm liquid ran down her chin. Somehow she
swallowed. The tent grew dimmer, and sleep took her again. This time she did not dream. She floated,
serene and at peace, on a black sea that knew no shore.
After a time-a night, a day, a year, she could not say-she woke again. The tent was dark, its silken walls
flapping like wings when the wind gusted outside. This time Dany did not attempt to rise. "Irri," she
called, "Jhiqui. Doreah." They were there at once. "My throat is dry," she said, "so dry," and they
brought her water. It was warm and flat, yet Dany drank it eagerly, and sent Jhiqui for more. Irri
dampened a soft cloth and stroked her brow. "I have been sick," Dany said. The Dothraki girl nodded.
"How long?" The cloth was soothing, but Irri seemed so sad, it frightened her. 'Eong, " she whispered.
When Jhiqui returned with more water, Mirri Maz Duur came with her, eyes heavy from sleep. "Drink,"
she said, lifting Dany's head to the cup once more, but this time it was only wine. Sweet, sweet wine.
Dany drank, and lay back, listening to the soft sound of her own breathing. She could feel the heaviness
in her limbs, as sleep crept in to fill her up once more. "Bring me . . ." she murmured, her voice slurred
and drowsy. "Bring . . . I want to hold . . ."
"Yes?" the maegi asked. "What is it you wish, Khaleesi?"
"Bring me . . . egg . . . dragon's egg . . . please . . ." Her lashes turned to lead, and she was too weary to
hold them up.
When she woke the third time, a shaft of golden sunlight was pouring through the smoke hole of the tent,
and her arms were wrapped around a dragon's egg. It was the pale one, its scales the color of butter
cream, veined with whorls of gold and bronze, and Dany could feel the heat of it. Beneath her bedsilks, a
fine sheen of perspiration covered her bare skin. Dragondew, she thought. Her fingers trailed lightly
across the surface of the shell, tracing the wisps of gold, and deep in the stone she felt something twist
and stretch in response. It did not frighten her. All her fear was gone, burned away.


Dany touched her brow. Under the film of sweat, her skin was cool to the touch, her fever gone. She
made herself sit. There was a moment of dizziness, and the deep ache between her thighs. Yet she felt
strong. Her maids came running at the sound of her voice. "Water," she told them, "a flagon of water,
cold as you can find it. And fruit, I think. Dates."
"As you say, Khaleesi."
"I want Ser Jorah," she said, standing. Jhiqui brought a sandsilk robe and draped it over her shoulders.
"And a warm bath, and Mirri Maz Duur, and . . ." Memory came back to her all at once, and she
faltered. "Khal Drogo," she forced herself to say, watching their faces with dread. "Is he-T'
"The khal lives," Irri answered quietly . . . yet Dany saw a darkness in her eyes when she said the words,
and no sooner had she spoken than she rushed away to fetch water.
She turned to Doreah. "Tell me."
A ... I shall bring Ser Jorah," the Lysene girl said, bowing her head and fleeing the tent.
Jhiqui would have run as well, but Dany caught her by the wrist and held her captive. "What is it? I must
know. Drogo . . . and my child." Why had she not remembered the child until now? "My son . . . Rhaego
. . . where is he? I want him."
Her handmaid lowered her eyes. "The boy . . . he did not live, Khaleesi." Her voice was a frightened
whisper.
Dany released her wrist. My son is dead, she thought as Jhiqui left the tent. She had known somehow.
She had known since she woke the first time to Jhiqui's tears. No, she had known before she woke. Her
dream came back to her, sudden and vivid, and she remembered the tall man with the copper skin and
long silver-gold braid, bursting into flame.


She should weep, she knew, yet her eyes were dry as ash. She had wept in her dream, and the tears
had turned to steam on her cheeks. All the grief has been burned out of me, she told herself. She felt sad,
and yet . . . she could feel Rhaego receding from her, as if he had never been.
Ser Jorah and Mirri Maz Duur entered a few moments later, and found Dany standing over the other
dragon's eggs, the two still in their chest. It seemed to her that they felt as hot as the one she had slept
with, which was passing strange. "Ser Jorah, come here," she said. She took his hand and placed it on
the black egg with the scarlet swirls. "What do you feel?"
"Shell, hard as rock." The knight was wary. "Scales."
"Heat?"
"No. Cold stone." He took his hand away. "Princess, are you well? Should you be up, weak as you
are?"
"Weak? I am strong, Jorah." To please him, she reclined on a pile of cushions. "Tell me how my child
died."
"He never lived, my princess. The women say He faltered, and Dany saw how the flesh hung loose on
him, and the way he limped when he moved.
"Tell me. Tell me what the women say."
He turned his face away. His eyes were haunted. "They say the child was . . ."
She waited, but Ser Jorah could not say it. His face grew dark with shame. He looked half a corpse
himself.


"Monstrous," Mirri Maz Duur finished for him. The knight was a powerful man, yet Dany understood in
that moment that the maegi was stronger, and crueler, and infinitely more dangerous. "Twisted. I drew
him forth myself. He was scaled like a lizard, blind, with the stub of a tail and small leather wings like the
wings of a bat. When I touched him, the flesh sloughed off the bone, and inside he was full of
graveworms and the stink of corruption. He had been dead for years."
Darkness, Dany thought. The terrible darkness sweeping up behind to devour her. If she looked back
she was lost. "My son was alive and strong when Ser Jorah carried me into this tent," she said. "I could
feel him kicking, fighting to be born."
"That may be as it may be," answered Mirri Maz Duur, "yet the creature that came forth from your
womb was as I said. Death was in that tent, Khaleesi."
"Only shadows," Ser Jorah husked, but Dany could hear the doubt in his voice. "I saw, maegi. I saw
you, alone, dancing with the shadows. "
"The grave casts long shadows, Iron Lord," Mirri said. "Long and dark, and in the end no light can hold
them back."
Ser Jorah had killed her son, Dany knew. He had done what he did for love and loyalty, yet he had
carried her into a place no living man should go and fed her baby to the darkness. He knew it too; the
grey face, the hollow eyes, the limp. "The shadows have touched you too, Ser Jorah," she told him. The
knight made no reply. Dany turned to the godswife. "You warned me that only death could pay for life. I
thought you meant the horse."
"No," Mirri Maz Duur said. "That was a lie you told yourself. You knew the price."
Had she? Had she? If I look back I am lost. "The price was paid," Dany said. "The horse, my child,
Quaro and Qotho, Haggo and Cohollo. The price was paid and paid and paid." She rose from her
cushions. "Where is Khal Drogo? Show him to me, godswife, maegi, bloodmage, whatever you are.


Show me Khal Drogo. Show me what I bought with my son's life."
"As you command, Khaleesi," the old woman said. "Come, I will take you to him."
Dany was weaker than she knew. Ser Jorah slipped an arm around her and helped her stand. "Time
enough for this later, my princess," he said quietly.
"I would see him now, Ser Jorah."
After the dimness of the tent, the world outside was blinding bright. The sun burned like molten gold, and
the land was seared and empty. Her handmaids waited with fruit and wine and water, and Jhogo moved
close to help Ser Jorah support her. Aggo and Rakharo stood behind. The glare of sun on sand made it
hard to see more, until Dany
raised her hand to shade her eyes. She saw the ashes of a fire, a few score horses milling listlessly and
searching for a bite of grass, a scattering of tents and bedrolls. A small crowd of children had gathered to
watch her, and beyond she glimpsed women going about their work, and withered old men staring at the
flat blue sky with tired eyes, swatting feebly at bloodflies. A count might show a hundred people, no
more. Where the other forty thousand had made their camp, only the wind and dust lived now.
"Drogo's khalasar is gone," she said.
"A khal who cannot ride is no khal," said Jhogo.
"The Dothraki follow only the strong," Ser Jorah said. "I am sorry, my princess. There was no way to
hold them. Ko Pono left first, naming himself Khal Pono, and many followed him. Jhaqo was not long to
do the same. The rest slipped away night by night, in large bands and small. There are a dozen new
khalasars on the Dothraki sea, where once there was only Drogo's."


"The old remain," said Aggo. "The frightened, the weak, and the sick. And we who swore. We remain."
"They took Khal Drogo's herds, Khaleesi," Rakharo said. "We were too few to stop them. It is the right
of the strong to take from the weak. They took many slaves as well, the khal's and yours, yet they left
some few."
"Eroeh?" asked Dany, remembering the frightened child she had saved outside the city of the Lamb
Men.
"Mago seized her, who is Khal Jhaqo's bloodrider now," said Jhogo. "He mounted her high and low and
gave her to his khal, and Jhaqo gave her to his other bloodriders. They were six. When they were done
with her, they cut her throat."
"It was her fate, Khaleesi," said Aggo.
If I look back I am lost. "It was a cruel fate," Dany said, "yet not so cruel as Mago's will be. I promise
you that, by the old gods and the new, by the lamb god and the horse god and every god that lives. I
swear it by the Mother of Mountains and the Womb of the World. Before I am done with them, Mago
and Ko Jhaqo will plead for the mercy they showed Eroeh."
The Dothraki exchanged uncertain glances. "Khaleesi, " the handmaid Irri explained, as if to a child,
"Jhaqo is a khal now, with twenty thousand riders at his back."
She lifted her head. "And I am Daenerys Stormhorn, Daenerys of House Targaryen, of the blood of
Aegon the Conqueror and Maegor the Cruel and old Valyria before them. I am the dragon's daughter,
and I swear to you, these men will die screaming. Now bring me to Khal Drogo."
He was lying on the bare red earth, staring up at the sun.


A dozen bloodflies had settled on his body, though he did not seem to feel them. Dany brushed them
away and knelt beside him. His eyes were wide open but did not see, and she knew at once that he was
blind. When she whispered his name, he did not seem to hear. The wound on his breast was as healed as
it would ever be, the scar that covered it grey and red and hideous.
"Why is he out here alone, in the sun?" she asked them.
"He seems to like the warmth, Princess," Ser Jorah said. "His eyes follow the sun, though he does not
see it. He can walk after a fashion. He will go where you lead him, but no farther. He will eat if you put
food in his mouth, drink if you dribble water on his lips."
Dany kissed her sun-and-stars gently on the brow, and stood to face Mirri Maz Duur. "Your spells are
costly, maegi."
"He lives," said Mirri Maz Duur. "You asked for life. You paid for life."
"This is not life, for one who was as Drogo was. His life was laughter, and meat roasting over a firepit,
and a horse between his legs. His life was an arakh in his hand and his bells ringing in his hair as he rode
to meet an enemy. His life was his bloodriders, and me, and the son I was to give him."
Mirri Maz Duur made no reply.
"When will he be as he was?" Dany demanded.
"When the sun rises in the west and sets in the east," said Mirri Maz Duur. "When the seas go dry and
mountains blow in the wind like leaves. When your womb quickens again, and you bear a living child.
Then he will return, and not before."
Dany gestured at Ser Jorah and the others. "Leave us. I would speak with this maegi alone." Mormont
and the Dothraki withdrew. "You knew," Dany said when they were gone. She ached, inside and out, but


her fury gave her strength. "You* knew what I was buying, and you knew the price, and yet you let me
pay it."
"It was wrong of them to burn my temple," the heavy, flat-nosed woman said placidly. "That angered the
Great Shepherd."
"This was no god's work," Dany said coldly. If I look back I am lost. "You cheated me. You murdered
my child within me."
"The stallion who mounts the world will burn no cities now. His khalasar shall trample no nations into
dusU,
"I spoke for you," she said, anguished. "I saved you."
"Saved me?" The Lhazareen woman spat. "Three riders had taken
me, not as a man takes a woman but from behind, as a dog takes a bitch. The fourth was in me when
you rode past. How then did you save me? I saw my god's house burn, where I had healed good men
beyond counting. My home they burned as well, and in the street I saw piles of heads. I saw the head of
a baker who made my bread. I saw the head of a boy I had saved from deadeye fever, only three moons
past. I heard children crying as the riders drove them off with their whips. Tell me again what you saved."
"Your life."
Mirri Maz Duur laughed cruelly. "Look to your khal and see what life is worth, when all the rest is gone."
Dany called out for the men of her khas and bid them take Mirri Maz Duur and bind her hand and foot,
but the maegi smiled at her as they carried her off, as if they shared a secret. A word, and Dany could
have her head off . . . yet then what would she have? A head? If life was worthless, what was death?


They led Khal Drogo back to her tent, and Dany commanded them to fill a tub, and this time there was
no blood in the water. She bathed him herself, washing the dirt and the dust from his arms and chest,
cleaning his face with a soft cloth, soaping his long black hair and combing the knots and tangles from it
till it shone again as she remembered. It was well past dark before she was done, and Dany was
exhausted. She stopped for drink and food, but it was all she could do to nibble at a fig and keep down a
mouthful of water. Sleep would have been a release, but she had slept enough . . . too long, in truth. She
owed this night to Drogo, for all the nights that had been, and yet might be.
The memory of their first ride was with her when she led him out into the darkness, for the Dothraki
believed that all things of importance in a man's life must be done beneath the open sky. She told herself
that there were powers stronger than hatred, and spells older and truer than any the maegi had learned in
Asshai. The night was black and moonless, but overhead a million stars burned bright. She took that for
an omen.
No soft blanket of grass welcomed them here, only the hard dusty ground, bare and strewn with stones.
No trees stirred in the wind, and there was no stream to soothe her fears with the gentle music of water.
Dany told herself that the stars would be enough. "Remember, Drogo," she whispered. "Remember our
first ride together, the day we wed. Remember the night we made Rhaego, with the khalasar all around
us and your eyes on my face. Remember how cool and clean
the water was in the Womb of the World. Remember, my sun-andstars. Remember, and come back to
me."
The birth had left her too raw and torn to take him inside of her, as she would have wanted, but Doreah
had taught her other ways. Dany used her hands, her mouth, her breasts. She raked him with her nails
and covered him with kisses and whispered and prayed and told him stories, and by the end she had
bathed him with her tears. Yet Drogo did not feel, or speak, or rise.
And when the bleak dawn broke over an empty horizon, Dany knew that he was truly lost to her.
"When the sun rises in the west and sets in the east," she said sadly. "When the seas go dry and
mountains blow in the wind like leaves. When my womb quickens again, and I bear a living child. Then
you will return, my sun-and-stars, and not before."


Never, the darkness cried, never never never.
Inside the tent Dany found a cushion, soft silk stuffed with feathers. She clutched it to her breasts as she
walked back out to Drogo, to her sun-and-stars. If I look back I am lost. It hurt even to walk, and she
wanted to sleep, to sleep and not to dream.
She knelt, kissed Drogo on the lips, and pressed the cushion down across his face.
TYRION
They have my son," Tywin Lannister said.
"They do, my lord." The messenger's voice was dulled by "Texhaustion. On the breast of his torn
surcoat, the brindled boar of Crakehall was half-obscured by dried blood.
One of your sons, Tyrion thought. He took a sip of wine and said not a word, thinking of Jaime. When
he lifted his arm, pain shot through his elbow, reminding him of his own brief taste of battle. He loved his
brother, but he would not have wanted to be with him in the Whispering Wood for all the gold in Casterly
Rock.
His lord father's assembled captains and bannermen had fallen very quiet as the courier told his tale. The
only sound was the crackle and hiss of the log burning in the hearth at the end of the long, drafty common
room.
After the hardships of the long relentless drive south, the prospect of even a single night in an inn had
cheered Tyrion mightily . . . though he rather wished it had not been this inn again, with all its memories.
His father had set a grueling pace, and it had taken its toll. Men wounded in the battle kept up as best
they could or were abandoned to fend for themselves. Every morning they left a few more by the
roadside, men who went to sleep never to wake. Every afternoon a few more collapsed along the way.
And every evening a few more


deserted, stealing off into the dusk. Tyrion had been half-tempted to go with them.
He had been upstairs, enjoying the comfort of a featherbed and the warmth of Shae's body beside him,
when his squire had woken him to say that a rider had arrived with dire news of Riverrun. So it had all
been for nothing. The rush south, the endless forced marches, the bodies left beside the road . . . all for
naught. Robb Stark had reached Riverrun days and days ago.
"How could this happen?" Ser Harys Swyft moaned. "How? Even after the Whispering Wood, you had
Riverrun ringed in iron, surrounded by a great host . . . what madness made Ser Jaime decide to split his
men into three separate camps? Surely he knew how vulnerable that would leave them?"
Better than you, you chinless craven, Tyrion thought. Jaime might have lost Riverrun, but it angered him
to hear his brother slandered by the likes of Swyft, a shameless lickspittle whose greatest
accomplishment was marrying his equally chinless daughter to Ser Kevan, and thereby attaching himself
to the Lannisters.
"I would have done the same," his uncle responded, a good deal more calmly than Tyrion might have.
"You have never seen Riverrun, Ser Harys, or you would know that Jaime had little choice in the matter.
The castle is situated at the end of the point of land where the Tumblestone flows into the Red Fork of
the Trident. The rivers form two sides of a triangle, and when danger threatens, the Tullys open their
sluice gates upstream to create a wide moat on the third side, turning Riverrun into an island. The walls
rise sheer from the water, and from their towers the defenders have a commanding view of the opposite
shores for many leagues around. To cut off all the approaches, a besieger must needs place one camp
north of the Tumblestone, one south of the Red Fork, and a third between the rivers, west of the moat.
There is no other way, none."
"Ser Kevan speaks truly, my lords," the courier said. "We'd built palisades of sharpened stakes around
the camps, yet it was not enough, not with no warning and the rivers cutting us off from each other. They
came down on the north camp first. No one was expecting an attack. Marq Piper had been raiding our
supply trains, but he had no more than fifty men. Ser Jaime had gone out to deal with them the night
before . . . well, with what we thought was them. We were told the Stark host was east of the Green
Fork, marching south . . ."
"And your outriders?" Ser Gregor Clegane's face might have been hewn from rock. The fire in the hearth


gave a somber orange cast to
his skin and put deep shadows in the hollows of his eyes. "They saw nothing? They gave you no
warning?"
The bloodstained messenger shook his head. "Our outriders had been vanishing. Marq Piper's work, we
thought. The ones who did come back had seen nothing."
"A man who sees nothing has no use for his eyes," the Mountain declared. "Cut them out and give them
to your next outrider. Tell him you hope that four eyes might see better than two . . . and if not, the man
after him will have six."
Lord Tywin Lannister turned his face to study Ser Gregor. Tyrion saw a glimmer of gold as the light
shone off his father's pupils, but he could not have said whether the look was one of approval or disgust.
Lord Tywin was oft quiet in council, preferring to listen before he spoke, a habit Tyrion himself tried to
emulate. Yet this silence was uncharacteristic even for him, and his wine was untouched.
"You said they came at night," Ser Kevan prompted.
The man gave a weary nod. "The Blacklish led the van, cutting down our sentries and clearing away the
palisades for the main assault. By the time our men knew what was happening, riders were pouring over
the ditch banks and galloping through the camp with swords and torches in hand. I was sleeping in the
west camp, between the rivers. When we heard the fighting and saw the tents being fired, Lord Brax led
us to the rafts and we tried to pole across, but the current pushed us downstream and the Tullys started
flinging rocks at us with the catapults on their walls. I saw one raft smashed to kindling and three others
overturned, men swept into the river and drowned . . . and those who did make it across found the
Starks waiting for them on the riverbanks."
Ser Flement Brax wore a silver-and-purple tabard and the look of a man who cannot comprehend what
he has just heard. "My lord father-"


"Sorry, my lord," the messenger said. "Lord Brax was clad in plateand-mail when his raft overturned. He
was very gallant."
He was a fool, Tyrion thought, swirling his cup and staring down into the winy depths. Crossing a river at
night on a crude raft, wearing armor, with an enemy waiting on the other side-if that was gallantry, he
would take cowardice every time. He wondered if Lord Brax had felt especially gallant as the weight of
his steel pulled him under the black water.
"The camp between the rivers was overrun as well," the messenger was saying. "While we were trying to
cross, more Starks swept in from the west, two columns of armored horse. I saw Lord Umber's giant-in
chains and the Mallister eagle, but it was the boy who led them, with a monstrous wolf running at his
side. I wasn't there to see, but it's said the beast killed four men and ripped apart a dozen horses. Our
spearmen formed up a shieldwall and held against their first charge, but when the Tullys saw them
engaged, they opened the gates of Riverrun and Tytos Blackwood led a sortie across the drawbridge
and took them in the rear."
"Gods save us," Lord Lefford swore.
"Greatjon Umber fired the siege towers we were building, and Lord Blackwood found Ser Edmure Tully
in chains among the other captives, and made off with them all. Our south camp was under the command
of Ser Forley Prester. He retreated in good order when he saw that the other camps were lost, with two
thousand spears and as many bowmen, but the Tyroshi sellsword who led his freeriders struck his
banners and went over to the foe."
"Curse the man." His uncle Kevan sounded more angry than surprised. "I warned Jaime not to trust that
one. A man who fights for coin is loyal only to his purse."
Lord Tywin wove his fingers together under his chin. Only his eyes moved as he listened. His bristling
golden side-whiskers framed a face so still it might have been a mask, but Tyrion could see tiny beads of
sweat dappling his father's shaven head.


"How could it happen?" Ser Harys Swyft wailed again. "Ser Jaime taken, the siege broken . . . this is a
catastrophe!"
Ser Addarn Marbrand said, "I am sure we are all grateful to you for pointing out the obvious, Ser Harys.
The question is, what shall we do about it?"
"What can we do? Jaime's host is all slaughtered or taken or put to flight, and the Starks and the Tullys
sit squarely across our line of supply. We are cut off from the west! They can march on Casterly Rock if
they so choose, and what's to stop them? My lords, we are beaten. We must sue for peace."
"Peace?" Tyrion swirled his wine thoughtfully, took a deep draft, and hurled his empty cup to the floor,
where it shattered into a thousand pieces. "There's your peace, Ser Harys. My sweet nephew broke it
for good and all when he decided to ornament the Red Keep with Lord Eddard's head. You'll have an
easier time drinking wine from that cup than you will convincing Robb Stark to make peace now. He's
winning . . . or hadn't you noticed?"
"Two battles do not make a war," Ser Addam insisted. "We are far from lost. I should welcome the
chance to try my own steel against this Stark boy."
"Perhaps they would consent to a truce, and allow us to trade our prisoners for theirs," offered Lord
Lefford.
"Unless they trade three-for-one, we still come out light on those scales," Tyrion said acidly. "And what
are we to offer for my brother? Lord Eddard's rotting head?"
"I had heard that Queen Cersei has the Hand's daughters," Lefford said hopefully. "If we give the lad his
sisters back . . ."
Ser Addam snorted disdainfully. "He would have to be an utter ass to trade Jaime Lannister's life for two
girls."


"Then we must ransom Ser Jaime, whatever it costs," Lord Lefford said.
Tyrion rolled his eyes. "If the Starks feel the need for gold, they can melt down Jaime's armor."
"if we ask for a truce, they will think us weak," Ser Addarn argued. "We should march on them at once."
"Surely our friends at court could be prevailed upon to join us with fresh troops," said Ser Harys. "And
someone might return to Casterly Rock to raise a new host."
Lord Tywin Lannister rose to his feet. "They have my son, " he said once more, in a voice that cut
through the babble like a sword through suet. "Leave me. All of you."
Ever the soul of obedience, Tyrion rose to depart with the rest, but his father gave him a look. "Not you,
Tyrion. Remain. And you as well, Kevan. The rest of you, out."
Tyrion eased himself back onto the bench, startled into speechlessness. Ser Kevan crossed the room to
the wine casks. "Uncle," Tyrion called, "if you would be so kind-"
"Here." His father offered him his cup, the wine untouched.
Now Tyrion truly was nonplussed. He drank.
Lord Tywin seated himself. "You have the right of it about Stark. Alive, we might have used Lord
Eddard to forge a peace with Winterfell and Riverrun, a peace that would have given us the time we need
to deal with Robert's brothers. Dead His hand curled into a fist. "Madness. Rank madness."
"Joff's only a boy," Tyrion pointed out. "At his age, I committed a few follies of my own."


His father gave him a sharp look. "I suppose we ought to be grateful that he has not yet married a
whore."
Tyrion sipped at his wine, wondering how Lord Tywin would look if he flung the cup in his face.
"Our position is worse than you know," his father went on. "It would seem we have a new king."
Ser Kevan looked poleaxed. "A new-who? What have they done to Joffrey?"
The faintest flicker of distaste played across Lord Tywin's thin lips. "Nothing . . . yet. My grandson still
sits the Iron Throne, but the eunuch has heard whispers from the south. Renly Baratheon wed Margaery
Tyrell at Highgarden this fortnight past, and now he has claimed the crown. The bride's father and
brothers have bent the knee and sworn him their swords."
"Those are grave tidings." When Ser Kevan frowned, the furrows in his brow grew deep as canyons.
"My daughter commands us to ride for King's Landing at once, to defend the Red Keep against King
Renly and the Knight of Flowers." His mouth tightened. "Commands us, mind you. In the name of the
king and council."
"How is King Joffrey taking the news?" Tyrion asked with a certain black amusement.
"Cersei has not seen fit to tell him yet," Lord Tywin said. "She fears he might insist on marching against
Renly himself."
"With what army?" Tyrion asked. "You don't plan to give him this one, I hope?"


"He talks of leading the City Watch," Lord Tywin said.
"If he takes the Watch, he'll leave the city undefended," Ser Kevan said. "And with Lord Stannis on
Dragonstone . . ."
"Yes." Lord Tywin looked down at his son. "I had thought you were the one made for motley, Tyrion,
but it would appear that I was wrong."
"Why, Father," said Tyrion, "that almost sounds like praise." He leaned forward intently. "What of
Stannis? He's the elder, not Renly. How does he feel about his brother's claim?"
His father frowned. "I have felt from the beginning that Stannis was a greater danger than all the others
combined. Yet he does nothing. Oh, Varys hears his whispers. Stannis is building ships, Stannis is hiring
sellswords, Stannis is bringing a shadowbinder from Asshai. What does it mean? Is any of it true?" He
gave an irritated shrug. "Kevan, bring us the map."
Ser Kevan did as he was bid. Lord Tywin unrolled the leather, smoothing it flat. "Jaime has left us in a
bad way. Roose Bolton and the remnants of his host are north of us. Our enemies hold the Twins and
Moat Cailin. Robb Stark sits to the west, so we cannot retreat to Lannisport and the Rock unless we
choose to give battle. Jaime is taken, and his army for all purposes has ceased to exist. Thoros of Myr
and Beric Dondarrion continue to plague our foraging parties. To our
east we have the Arryns, Stannis Baratheon sits on Dragonstone, and in the south Highgarden and
Storm's End are calling their banners."
Tyrion smiled crookedly. "Take heart, Father. At least Rhaegar Targaryen is still dead."
"I had hoped you might have more to offer us than japes, Tyrion," Lord Tywin Lannister said.


Ser Kevan frowned over the map, forehead creasing. "Robb Stark will have Edmure Tully and the lords
of the Trident with him now. Their combined power may exceed our own. And with Roose Bolton
behind us . . . Tywin, if we remain here, I fear we might be caught between three armies."
"I have no intention of remaining here. We must finish our business with young Lord Stark before Renly
Baratheon can march from Highgarden. Bolton does not concern me. He is a wary man, and we made
him warier on the Green Fork. He will be slow to give pursuit. So . . . on the morrow, we make for
Harrenhal. Kevan, I want Ser Addam's outriders to screen our movements. Give him as many men as he
requires, and send them out in groups of four. I will have no vanishings."
"As you say, my lord, but . . . why Harrenhal? That is a grim, unlucky place. Some call it cursed."
"Let them," Lord Tywin said. "Unleash Ser Gregor and send him before us with his reavers. Send forth
Vargo Hoat and his freeriders as well, and Ser Amory Lorch. Each is to have three hundred horse. Tell
them I want to see the riverlands afire from the Gods Eye to the Red Fork."
"They will burn, my lord," Ser Kevan said, rising. "I shall give the commands." He bowed and made for
the door.
When they were alone, Lord Tywin glanced at Tyrion. "Your savages might relish a bit of rapine. Tell
them they may ride with Vargo Hoat and plunder as they like-goods, stock, women, they may take what
they want and burn the rest."
"Telling Shagga and Timett how to pillage is like telling a rooster how to crow," Tyrion commented, "but
I should prefer to keep them with me." Uncouth and unruly they might be, yet the wildlings were his, and
he trusted them more than any of his father's men. He was not about to hand them over.
"Then you had best learn to control them. I will not have the city plundered."
"The city?" Tyrion was lost. "What city would that be?"


"King's Landing. I am sending you to court."
It was the last thing Tyrion Lannister would ever have anticipated.
He reached for his wine, and considered for a moment as he sipped. "And what am I to do there?"
"Rule," his father said curtly
Tyrion hooted with laughter. "My sweet sister might have a word or two to say about that!"
"Let her say what she likes. Her son needs to be taken in hand before he ruins us all. I blame those
jackanapes on the council-our friend Petyr, the venerable Grand Maester, and that cockless wonder
Lord Varys. What sort of counsel are they giving Joffrey when he lurches from one folly to the next?
Whose notion was it to make this Janos Slynt a lord? The man's father was a butcher, and they grant him
Harrenhal. Harrenhal, that was the seat of kings! Not that he will ever set foot inside it, if I have a say. I
am told he took a bloody spear for his sigil. A bloody cleaver would have been my choice." His father
had not raised his voice, yet 'I~rion could see the anger in the gold of his eyes. "And dismissing Selmy,
where was the sense in that? Yes, the man was old, but the name of Barristan the Bold still has meaning
in the realm. He lent honor to any man he served. Can anyone say the same of the Hound? You feed
your dog bones under the table, you do not seat him beside you on the high bench." He pointed a finger
at Tyrion's face. "If Cersei cannot curb the boy, you must. And if these councillors are playing us false . .
."
Tyrion knew. "Spikes," he sighed. "Heads. Walls."
"I see you have taken a few lessons from me."
"More than you know, Father," Tyrion answered quietly. He finished his wine and set the cup aside,
thoughtful. A part of him was more pleased than he cared to admit. Another part was remembering the
battle upriver, and wondering if he was being sent to hold the left again. "Why me?" he asked, cocking his
head to one side. "Why not my uncle? Why not Ser Addam or Ser Flement or Lord Serrett? Why not a .


. . bigger man?"
Lord Tywin rose abruptly. "You are my son."
That was when he knew. You have given him up for lost, he thought. You bloody bastard, you think
Jaime's good as dead, so I'm all you have left. '1~rion wanted to slap him, to spit in his face, to draw his
dagger and cut the heart out of him and see if it was made of old hard gold, the way the smallfolks said.
Yet he sat there, silent and still.
The shards of the broken cup crunched beneath his father's heels as Lord Tywin crossed the room.
"One last thing," he said at the door. "You will not take the whore to court."
Tyrion sat alone in the common room for a long while after his father was gone. Finally he climbed the
steps to his cozy garret beneath
the bell tower. The ceiling was low, but that was scarcely a drawback for a dwarf. From the window, he
could see the gibbet his father had erected in the yard. The innkeep's body turned slowly on its rope
whenever the night wind gusted. Her flesh had grown as thin and ragged as Lannister hopes.
Shae murmured sleepily and rolled toward him when he sat on the edge of the featherbed. He slid his
hand under the blanket and cupped a soft breast, and her eyes opened. "M'lord," she said with a drowsy
smile.
When he felt her nipple stiffen, Tyrion kissed her. "I have a mind to take you to King's Landing,
sweetling," he whispered.
JON


The mare whickered softly as Jon Snow tightened the cinch. "Easy, sweet lady," he said in a soft voice,
quieting her with a touch. Wind whispered through the stable, a cold dead breath on his face, but Jon
paid it no mind. He strapped his roll to the saddle, his scarred fingers stiff and clumsy. "Ghost," he called
softly, "to me." And the wolf was there, eyes like embers.
"Jon, please. You must not do this."
He mounted, the reins in his hand, and wheeled the horse around to face the night. Samwell Tarly stood
in the stable door, a full moon peering over his shoulder. He threw a giant's shadow, immense and black.
"Get out of my way, Sam."
"Jon, you can't," Sam said. "I won't let you."
"I would sooner not hurt you," Jon told him. "Move aside, Sam, or I'll ride you down."
"You won't. You have to listen to me. Please
Jon put his spurs to horseflesh, and the mare bolted for the door. For an instant Sam stood his ground,
his face as round and pale as the moon behind him, his mouth a widening 0 of surprise. At the last
moment, when they were almost on him, he jumped aside as Jon had known he would, stumbled, and
fell. The mare leapt over him, out into the night.
Jon raised the hood of his heavy cloak and gave the horse her head.
Castle Black was silent and still as he rode out, with Ghost racing at his side. Men watched from the
Wall behind him, he knew, but their eyes were turned north, not south. No one would see him go, no one
but Sam Tarly, struggling back to his feet in the dust of the old stables. He hoped Sam hadn't hurt himself,
falling like that. He was so heavy and so ungainly, it would be just like him to break a wrist or twist his
ankle getting out of the way. "I warned him," Jon said aloud. "It was nothing to do with him, anyway." He
flexed his burned hand as he rode, opening and closing the scarred fingers. They still pained him, but it


felt good to have the wrappings off.
Moonlight silvered the hills as he followed the twisting ribbon of the kingsroad. He needed to get as far
from the Wall as he could before they realized he was gone. On the morrow he would leave the road and
strike out overland through field and bush and stream to throw off pursuit, but for the moment speed was
more important than deception. It was not as though they would not guess where he was going.
The Old Bear was accustomed to rise at first light, so Jon had until dawn to put as many leagues as he
could between him and the Wall . . . if Sam Tarly did not betray him. The fat boy was dutiful and easily
frightened, but he loved Jon like a brother. If questioned, Sam would doubtless tell them the truth, but
Jon could not imagine him braving the guards in front of the Mng's Tower to wake Mormont from sleep.
When Jon did not appear to fetch the Old Bear's breakfast from the kitchen, they'd look in his cell and
find Longclaw on the bed. It had been hard to abandon it, but Jon was not so lost to honor as to take it
with him. Even Jorah Mormont had not done that, when he fled in disgrace. Doubtless Lord Mormont
would find someone more worthy of the blade. Jon felt bad when he thought of the old man. He knew his
desertion would be salt in the still-raw wound of his son's disgrace. That seemed a poor way to repay
him for his trust, but it couldn't be helped. No matter what he did, Jon felt as though he were betraying
someone.
Even now, he did not know if he was doing the honorable thing. The southron had it easier. They had
their septons to talk to, someone to tell them the gods' will and help sort out right from wrong. But the
Starks worshiped the old gods, the nameless gods, and if the heart trees heard, they did not speak.
When the last lights of Castle Black vanished behind him, Jon slowed his mare to a walk. He had a long
journey ahead and only the one horse to see him through. There were holdfasts and farming villages along
the road south where he might be able to trade the mare
for a fresh mount when he needed one, but not if she were injured or blown.
He would need to find new clothes soon; most like, he'd need to steal them. He was clad in black from
head to heel; high leather riding boots, roughspun breeches and tunic, sleeveless leather jerkin, and heavy
wool cloak. His longsword and dagger were sheathed in black moleskin, and the hauberk and coif in his


saddlebag were black ringmail. Any bit of it could mean his death if he were taken. A stranger wearing
black was viewed with cold suspicion in every village and holdfast north of the Neck, and men would
soon be watching for him. Once Maester Aemon's ravens took flight, Jon knew he would find no safe
haven. Not even at Winterfell. Bran might want to let him in, but Maester Luwin had better sense. He
would bar the gates and send Jon away, as he should. Better not to call there at all.
Yet he saw the castle clear in his mind's eye, as if he had left it only yesterday; the towering granite walls,
the Great Hall with its smells of smoke and dog and roasting meat, his father's solar, the turret room
where he had slept. Part of him wanted nothing so much as to hear Bran laugh again, to sup on one of
Gage's beef-and-bacon pies, to listen to Old Nan tell her tales of the children of the forest and Florian the
Fool.
But he had not left the Wall for that; he had left because he was after all his father's son, and Robb's
brother. The gift of a sword, even a sword as fine as Longclaw, did not make him a Mormont. Nor was
he Aemon Targaryen. Three times the old man had chosen, and three times he had chosen honor, but
that was him. Even now, Jon could not decide whether the maester had stayed because he was weak
and craven, or because he was strong and true. Yet he understood what the old man had meant, about
the pain of choosing; he understood that all too well.
Tyrion Lannister had claimed that most men would rather deny a hard truth than face it, but Jon was
done with denials. He was who he was; Jon Snow, bastard and oathbreaker, motherless, friendless, and
damned. For the rest of his life-however long that might be-he would be condemned to be an outsider,
the silent man standing in the shadows who dares not speak his true name. Wherever he might go
throughout the Seven Kingdoms, he would need to live a lie, lest every man's hand be raised against him.
But it made no matter, so long as he lived long enough to take his place by his brother's side and help
avenge his father.
He remembered Robb as he had last seen him, standing in the yard with snow melting in his auburn hair.
Jon would have to come to him
in secret, disguised. He tried to imagine the look on Robb's face when he revealed himself. His brother
would shake his head and smile, and he'd say ... he'd say ...
He could not see the smile. Hard as he tried, he could not see it. He found himself thinking of the
deserter his father had beheaded the day they'd found the direwolves. "You said the words," Lord


Eddard had told him. "You took a vow, before your brothers, before the old gods and the new."
Desmond and Fat Tom had dragged the man to the stump. Bran's eyes had been wide as saucers, and
Jon had to remind him to keep his pony in hand. He remembered the look on Father's face when Theon
Greyjoy brought forth Ice, the spray of blood on the snow, the way Theon had kicked the head when it
came rolling at his feet.
He wondered what Lord Eddard might have done if the deserter had been his brother Benjen instead of
that ragged stranger. Would it have been any different? It must, surely, surely . . . and Robb would
welcome him, for a certainty. He had to, or else . . .
It did not bear thinking about. Pain throbbed, deep in his fingers, as he clutched the reins. Jon put his
heels into his horse and broke into a gallop, racing down the kingsroad, as if to outrun his doubts. Jon
was not afraid of death, but he did not want to die like that, trussed and bound and beheaded like a
common brigand. If he must perish, let it be with a sword in his hand, fighting his father's killers. He was
no true Stark, had never been one . . . but he could die like one. Let them say that Eddard Stark had
fathered four sons, not three.
Ghost kept pace with them for almost half a mile, red tongue lolling from his mouth. Man and horse alike
lowered their heads as he asked the mare for more speed. The wolf slowed, stopped, watching, his eyes
glowing red in the moonlight. He vanished behind, but Jon knew he would follow, at his own pace.
Scattered lights flickered through the trees ahead of him, on both sides of the road: Mole's Town. A dog
barked as he rode through, and he heard a mule's raucous haw from the stable, but otherwise the village
was still. Here and there the glow of hearth fires shone through shuttered windows, leaking between
wooden slats, but only a few.
Mole's Town was bigger than it seemed, but three quarters of it was under the ground, in deep warm
cellars connected by a maze of tunnels. Even the whorehouse was down there, nothing on the surface but
a wooden shack no bigger than a privy, with a red lantern hung over the door. On the Wall, he'd heard
men call the whores "buried treasures." He wondered whether any of his brothers in black were down
A GAME OF 'FHRONES 679
there tonight, mining. That was oathbreaking too, yet no one seemed to care.


Not until he was well beyond the village did Jon slow again. By then both he and the mare were damp
with sweat. He dismounted, shivering, his burned hand aching. A bank of melting snow lay under the
trees, bright in the moonlight, water trickling off to form small shallow pools. Jon squatted and brought his
hands together, cupping the runoff between his fingers. The snowmelt was icy cold. He drank, and
splashed some on his face, until his cheeks tingled. His fingers were throbbing worse than they had in
days, and his head was pounding too. I am doing the right thing, he told himself, so why do I feel so bad?
The horse was well lathered, so Jon took the lead and walked her for a while. The road was scarcely
wide enough for two riders to pass abreast, its surface cut by tiny streams and littered with stone. That
run had been truly stupid, an invitation to a broken neck. Jon wondered what had gotten into him. Was
he in such a great rush to die?
Off in the trees, the distant scream of some frightened animal made him look up. His mare whinnied
nervously. Had his wolf found some prey? He cupped his hands around his mouth. "Ghost!" he shouted.
"Ghost, to me." The only answer was a rush of wings behind him as an owl took flight.
Frowning, Jon continued on his way. He led the mare for half an hour, until she was dry. Ghost did not
appear. Jon wanted to mount up and ride again, but he was concerned about his missing wolf. "Ghost, "
he called again. "Where are you? To me! Ghost!" Nothing in these woods could trouble a direwolf, even
a half-grown direwolf, unless . . . no, Ghost was too smart to attack a bear, and if there was a wolf pack
anywhere close Jon would have surely heard them howling.
He should eat, he decided. Food would settle his stomach and give Ghost the chance to catch up. There
was no danger yet; Castle Black still slept. In his saddlebag, he found a biscuit, a piece of cheese, and a
small withered brown apple. He'd brought salt beef as well, and a rasher of bacon he'd filched from the
kitchens, but he would save the meat for the morrow. After it was gone he'd need to hunt, and that would
slow him.
Jon sat under the trees and ate his biscuit and cheese while his mare grazed along the kingsroad. He kept
the apple for last. It had gone a little soft, but the flesh was still tart and juicy. He was down to the core
when he heard the sounds: horses, and from the north. Quickly Jon leapt up and strode to his mare.
Could he outrun them? No, they were too close, they'd hear him for a certainty, and if they were from
Castle Black . . .
He led the mare off the road, behind a thick stand of grey-green sentinels. "Ouiet now," he said in a


hushed voice, crouching down to peer through the branches. If the gods were kind, the riders would pass
by. Likely as not, they were only smallfolk from Mole's Town, farmers on their way to their fields,
although what they were doing out in the middle of the night . . .
He listened to the sound of hooves growing steadily louder as they trotted briskly down the kingsroad.
From the sound, there were five or six of them at the least. Their voices drifted through the trees.
". . . certain he came this way?".
"We can't be certain."
"He could have ridden east, for all you know. Or left the road to cut through the woods. That's what I'd
do."
"In the dark? Stupid. If you didn't fall off your horse and break your neck, you'd get lost and wind up
back at the Wall when the sun came up.
"I would not." Grenn sounded peeved. "I'd just ride south, you can tell south by the stars."
"What if the sky was cloudy?" Pyp asked.
"Then I wouldn't go."
Another voice broke in. "You know where Id be if it was me? I'd be in Mole's Town, digging for buried
treasure." Toad's shrill laughter boomed through the trees. Jon's mare snorted.
"Keep quiet, all of you," Haider said. "I thought I heard something."
"Where? I didn't hear anything." The horses stopped.


"You can't hear yourself fart."
"I can too," Grenn insisted.
"Quiet!"
They all fell silent, listening. Jon found himself holding his breath. Sam, he thought. He hadn't gone to the
Old Bear, but he hadn't gone to bed either, he'd woken the other boys. Damn them all. Come dawn, if
they were not in their beds, they'd be named deserters too. What did they think they were doing?
The hushed silence seemed to stretch on and on. From where Jon crouched, he could see the legs of
their horses through the branches. Finally Pyp spoke up. "What did you hear?"
"I don't know," Haider admitted. "A sound, I thought it might have been a horse but . . ."
"There's nothing here."
Out of the corner of his eye, Jon glimpsed a pale shape moving through the trees. Leaves rustled, and
Ghost came bounding out of the
shadows, so suddenly that Jon's mare started and gave a whinny. "There!" Halder shouted.
"I heard it too!"


"Traitor," Jon told the direwolf as he swung up into the saddle. He turned the mare's head to slide off
through the trees, but they were on him before he had gone ten feet.
"Jon!" Pyp shouted after him.
"Pull up," Grenn said. "You can't outrun us all."
Jon wheeled around to face them, drawing his sword. "Get back. I don't wish to hurt you, but I will if I
have to."
"One against seven?" Halder gave a signal. The boys spread out, surrounding him.
"What do you want with me?" Jon demanded.
"We want to take you back where you belong," Pyp said.
"I belong with my brother."
"We're your brothers now," Grenn said.
"They'll cut off your head if they catch you, you know," Toad put in with a nervous laugh. "This is so
stupid, it's like something the Aurochs would do."
"I would not," Grenn said. "I'm no oathbreaker. I said the words and I meant them."
"So did U' Jon told them. "Don't you understand? They murdered my father. It's war, my brother Robb
is fighting in the riverlands-"


"We know," said Pyp solemnly. "Sam told us everything."
"We're sorry about your father," Grenn said, "but it doesn't matter. Once you say the words, you can't
leave, no matter what."
"I have to," Jon said fervently.
"You said the words," Pyp reminded him. "Now my watch begins, you said it. It shall not end until my
death. "
"I shall live and die at my post, " Grenn added, nodding.
"You don't have to tell me the words, I know them as well as you do." He was angry now. Why couldn't
they let him go in peace? They were only making it harder.
"I am the sword in the darkness, " Halder intoned.
"The watcher on the walls, " piped Toad.
Jon cursed them all to their faces. They took no notice. Pyp spurred his horse closer, reciting, "I am the
fire that bums against the cold, the light that brings the dawn, the hom that wakes the sleepers, the shield
that guards the realms of men. "
"Stay back," Jon warned him, brandishing his sword. "I mean it, Pyp." They weren't even wearing armor,
he could cut them to pieces if he had to.


Matthar had circled behind him. He joined the chorus. "Ipledge my life and honor to the Night's Watch. "
Jon kicked his mare, spinning her in a circle. The boys were all around him now, closing from every side.
"For this night Halder trotted in from the left.
. . . and all the nights to come, " finished Pyp. He reached over for Jon's reins. "So here are your
choices. Kill me, or come back with me."
Jon lifted his sword . . . and lowered it, helpless. "Damn you," he said. "Damn you all."
"Do we have to bind your hands, or will you give us your word you'll ride back peaceful?" asked
Halder.
"I won't run, if that's what you mean." Ghost moved out from under the trees and Jon glared at him.
"Small help you were," he said. The deep red eyes looked at him knowingly.
"We had best hurry," Pyp said. "If we're not back before first light, the Old Bear will have all our heads."
Of the ride back, Jon Snow remembered little. It seemed shorter than the journey south, perhaps
because his mind was elsewhere. Pyp set the pace, galloping, walking, trotting, and then breaking into
another gallop. Mole's Town came and went, the red lantern over the brothel long extinguished. They
made good time. Dawn was still an hour off when Jon glimpsed the towers of Castle Black ahead of
them, dark against the pale immensity of the Wall. It did not seem like home this time.
They could take him back, Jon told himself, but they could not make him stay. The war would not end
on the morrow, or the day after, and his friends could not watch him day and night. He would bide his
time, make them think he was content to remain here . . . and then, when they had grown lax, he would
be off again. Next time he would avoid the kingsroad. He could follow the Wall east, perhaps all the way
to the sea, a longer route but a safer one. Or even west, to the mountains, and then south over the high
passes. That was the wildling's way, hard and perilous, but at least no one wouid follow him. He wouldn't
stray within a hundred leagues of Winterfell or the kingsroad.


Samwell Tarly awaited them in the old stables, slumped on the ground against a bale of hay, too anxious
to sleep. He rose and brushed himself off. "I . . . I'm glad they found you, Jon."
11IPm not," Jon said, dismounting.
Pyp hopped off his horse and looked at the lightening sky with disgust. "Give us a hand bedding down
the horses, Sam," the small boy
said. "We have a long day before us, and no sleep to face it on, thanks to Lord Snow."
When day broke, Jon walked to the kitchens as he did every dawn. Three-Finger Hobb said nothing as
he gave him the Old Bear's breakfast. Today it was three brown eggs boiled hard, with fried bread and
ham steak and a bowl of wrinkled plums. Jon carried the food back to the King's Tower. He found
Mormont at the window seat, writing. His raven was walking back and forth across his shoulders,
muttering, "Corn, corn, corn. " The bird shrieked when Jon entered. "Put the food on the table," the Old
Bear said, glancing up. "I'll have some beer."
Jon opened a shuttered window, took the flagon of beer off the outside ledge, and filled a horn. Hobb
had given him a lemon, still cold from the Wall. Jon crushed it in his fist. The juice trickled through his
fingers. Mormont drank lemon in his beer every day, and claimed that was why he still had his own teeth.
"Doubtless you loved your father," Mormont said when Jon brought him his horn. "The things we love
destroy us every time, lad. Remember when I told you that?"
"I remember," Jon said sullenly. He did not care to talk of his father's death, not even to Mormont.
"See that you never forget it. The hard truths are the ones to hold tight. Fetch me my plate. Is it ham
again? So be it. You look weary. Was your moonlight ride so tiring?"


Jon's throat was dry. "You know?"
"Know, " the raven echoed from Mormont's shoulder. "Know.
The Old Bear snorted. "Do you think they chose me Lord Commander of the Night's Watch because
I'm dumb as a stump, Snow? Aemon told me you'd go. I told him you'd be back. I know my men . . .
and my boys too. Honor set you on the kingsroad . . . and honor brought you back."
"My friends brought me back," Jon said.
"Did I say it was your honor?" Mormont inspected his plate.
"They killed my father. Did you expect me to do nothing?"
"If truth be told, we expected you to do just as you did." Mormont tried a plum, spit out the pit. "I
ordered a watch kept over you., You were seen leaving. If your brothers had not fetched you back, you
would have been taken along the way, and not by friends. Unless you have a horse with wings like a
raven. Do you?"
"No." Jon felt like a fool.
"Pity, we could use a horse like that."
Jon stood tall. He told himself that he would die well; that much he


could do, at the least. "I know the penalty for desertion, my lord. I'm not afraid to die."
"Die!" the raven cried.
"Nor live, I hope," Mormont said, cutting his ham with a dagger and feeding a bite to the bird. "You have
not deserted-yet. Here you stand. If we beheaded every boy who rode to Mole's Town in the night, only
ghosts would guard the Wall. Yet maybe you mean to flee again on the morrow, or a fortnight from now.
Is that it? Is that your hope, boy?"
Jon kept silent.
"I thought so." Mormont peeled the shell off a boiled egg. "Your father is dead, lad. Do you think you
can bring him back?"
"No," he answered, sullen.
"Good," Mormont said. "We've seen the dead come back, you and me, and it's not something I care to
see again." He ate the egg in two bites and flicked a bit of shell out from between his teeth. "Your brother
is in the field with all the power of the north behind him. Any one of his lords bannermen commands more
swords than you'll find in all the Night's Watch. Why do you imagine that they need your help? Are you
such a mighty warrior, or do you carry a grumkin in your pocket to magic up your sword?"
Jon had no answer for him. The raven was pecking at an egg, breaking the shell. Pushing his beak
through the hole, he pulled out morsels of white and yoke.
The Old Bear sighed. "You are not the only one touched by this war. Like as not, my sister is marching
in your brother's host, her and those daughters of hers, dressed in men's mail. Maege is a hoary old
snark, stubborn, short-tempered, and willful. Truth be told, I can hardly stand to be around the wretched
woman, but that does not mean my love for her is any less than the love you bear your half sisters."
Frowning, Mormont took his last egg and squeezed it in his fist until the shell crunched. "Or perhaps it
does. Be that as it may, I'd still grieve if she were slain, yet you don't see me running off. I said the words,
just as you did. My place is here . . . where is yours, boy?"


I have no place, Jon wanted to say, I'm a bastard, I have no rights, no name, no mother, and now not
even a father. The words would not come. "I don't know."
"I do," said Lord Commander Mormont. "The cold winds are rising, Snow. Beyond the Wall, the
shadows lengthen. Cotter Pyke writes of vast herds of elk, streaming south and east toward the sea, and
mammoths as well. He says one of his men discovered huge, misshapen footprints not three leagues from
Eastwatch. Rangers from the
Shadow Tower have found whole villages abandoned, and at night Ser Denys says they see fires in the
mountains, huge blazes that burn from dusk till dawn. Quorin Halfhand took a captive in the depths of the
Gorge, and the man swears that Mance Rayder is massing all his people in some new, secret stronghold
he's found, to what end the gods only know. Do you think your uncle Benjen was the only ranger we've
lost this past year?"
"Ben Jen, " the raven squawked, bobbing its head, bits of egg dribbling from its beak. "Ben Jen. Ben
Jen. "
"No," Jon said. There had been others. Too many.
"Do you think your brother's war is more important than ours?" the old man barked.
Jon chewed his lip. The raven flapped its wings at him. "War, war, war, war, " it sang.
"It's not," Mormont told him. "Gods save us, boy, you're not blind and you're not stupid. When dead
men come hunting in the night, do you think it matters who sits the Iron Throne?"
"No." Jon had not thought of it that way.
"Your lord father sent you to us, Jon. Why, who can say?"


""y? Why? Why?" the raven called.
"All I know is that the blood of the First Men flows in the veins of the Starks. The First Men built the
Wall, and it's said they remember things otherwise forgotten. And that beast of yours . . . he led us to the
wights, warned you of the dead man on the steps. Ser Jaremy would doubtless call that happenstance,
yet Ser Jaremy is dead and I'm not." Lord Mormont stabbed a chunk of ham with the point of his dagger.
"I think you were meant to be here, and I want you and that wolf of yours with us when we go beyond
the Wall."
His words sent a chill of excitement down Jon's back. "Beyond the Wall?"
"You heard me. I mean to find Ben Stark, alive or dead." He chewed and swallowed. "I will not sit here
meekly and wait for the snows and the ice winds. We must know what is happening. This time the
Night's Watch will ride in force, against the King-beyond-the-Wall, the Others, and anything else that
may be out there. I mean to command them myself." He pointed his dagger at Jon's chest. "By custom,
the Lord Commander's steward is his squire as well . . . but I do not care to wake every dawn
wondering if you've run off again. So I will have an answer from you, Lord Snow, and I will have it now.
Are you a brother of the Night's Watch . . . or only a bastard boy who wants to play at war?"
Jon Snow straightened himself and took a long deep breath. Forgive me, Father. Robb, Arya, Bran ...
forgive me, I cannot help you. He has the truth of it. This is my place. "I am . . . yours, my lord. Your
man. I swear it. I will not run again."
The Old Bear snorted. "Good. Now go put on your sword."
CATELYN
It seemed a thousand years ago that Catelyn Stark had carried her infant son out of Riverrun, crossing


the Tumblestone in a small boat to begin their journey north to Winterfell. And it was across the
Tumblestone that they came home now, though the boy wore plate and mail in place of swaddling
clothes.
Robb sat in the bow with Grey Wind, his hand resting on his direwolf s head as the rowers pulled at their
oars. Theon Greyjoy was with him. Her uncle Brynden would come behind in the second boat, with the
Greatjon and Lord Karstark.
Catelyn took a place toward the stern. They shot down the Tumblestone, letting the strong current push
them past the looming Wheel Tower. The splash and rumble of the great waterwheel within was a sound
from her girlhood that brought a sad smile to Catelyn's face. From the sandstone walls of the castle,
soldiers and servants shouted down her name, and Robb's, and "Winterfell!" From every rampart waved
the banner of House Tully: a leaping trout, silver, against a rippling blue-and-red field. It was a stirring
sight, yet it did not lift her heart. She wondered if indeed her heart would ever lift again. Oh, Ned . . .
Below the Wheel Tower, they made a wide turn and knifed through the churning water. The men put
their backs into it. The wide arch of the Water Gate came into view, and she heard the creak of heavy
chains as the great iron portcullis was winched upward. It rose slowly as they approached, and Catelyn
saw that the lower half of it was red with rust. The bottom foot dripped brown mud on them as they
passed underneath, the barbed spikes mere inches above their heads. Catelyn gazed up at the bars and
wondered how deep the rust went and how well the portcullis would stand up to a ram and whether it
ought to be replaced. Thoughts like that were seldom far from her mind these days.
They passed beneath the arch and under the walls, moving from sunlight to shadow and back into
sunlight. Boats large and small were tied up all around them, secured to iron rings set in the stone. Her
father's guards waited on the water stair with her brother. Ser Edmure Tully was a stocky young man
with a shaggy head of auburn hair and a fiery beard. His breastplate was scratched and dented from
battle, his blue-and-red cloak stained by blood and smoke. At his side stood the Lord `I~tos
Blackwood, a hard pike of a man with close-cropped saltand-pepper whiskers and a hook nose. His
bright yellow armor was inlaid with jet in elaborate vine-and-leaf patterns, and a cloak sewn from raven
feathers draped his thin shoulders. It had been Lord `J~tos who led the sortie that plucked her brother
from the Lannister camp.
"Bring them in," Ser Edmure commanded. Three men scrambled down the stairs knee-deep in the water


and pulled the boat close with long hooks. When Grey Wind bounded out, one of them dropped his pole
and lurched back, stumbling and sitting down abruptly in the river. The others laughed, and the man got a
sheepish look on his face. Theon Greyjoy vaulted over the side of the boat and lifted Catelyn by the
waist, setting her on a dry step above him as water lapped around his boots.
Edmure came down the steps to embrace her. "Sweet sister," he murmured hoarsely. He had deep blue
eyes and a mouth made for smiles, but he was not smiling now. He looked worn and tired, battered by
battle and haggard from strain. His neck was bandaged where he had taken a wound. Catelyn hugged
him fiercely.
"Your grief is mine, Cat," he said when they broke apart. "When we heard about Lord Eddard . . . the
Lannisters will pay, I swear it, you will have your vengeance."
"Will that bring Ned back to me?" she said sharply. The wound was still too fresh for softer words. She
could not think about Ned now. She would not. It would not do. She had to be strong. "All that will
keep. I must see Father."
"He awaits you in his solar," Edmure said.
"Lord Hoster is bedridden, my lady," her father's steward ex
plained. When had that good man grown so old and grey? "He instructed me to bring you to him at
once."
"I'll take her." Edmure escorted her up the water stair and across the lower bailey, where Petyr Baelish
and Brandon Stark had once crossed swords for her favor. The: massive sandstone walls of the keep
loomed above them. As they pushed through a door between two guardsmen in fish-crest helms, she
asked, "How bad is he?" dreading the answer even as she said the words.
Edmure's look was somber. "He will not be with us long, the maesters say. The pain is . . . constant, and
grievous."


A blind rage filled her, a rage at all the world; at her brother Edmure and her sister Lysa, at the
Lannisters, at the maesters, at Ned and her father and the monstrous gods who would take them both
away from her. "You should have told me," she said. "You should have sent word as soon as you knew."
"He forbade it. He did not want his enemies to know that he was dying. With the realm so troubled, he
feared that if the Lannisters suspected how frail he was . . . 9'
". . . they might attack?" Catelyn finished, hard. It was your doing, yours, a voice whispered inside her.
Ifyou had not taken it upon yourself to seize the dwarf . . .
They climbed the spiral stair in silence.
The keep was three-sided, like Riverrun itself, and Lord Hoster's solar was triangular as well, with a
stone balcony that jutted out to the east like the prow of some great sandstone ship. From there the lord
of the castle could look down on his walls and battlements, and beyond, to where the waters met. They
had moved her father's bed out onto the balcony. "He likes to sit in the sun and watch the rivers," Edmure
explained. "Father, see who I've brought. Cat has come to see you . . .
Hoster Tully had always been a big man; tall and broad in his youth, portly as he grew older. Now he
seemed shrunken, the muscle and meat melted off his bones. Even his face sagged. The last time Catelyn
had seen him, his hair and beard had been brown, well streaked with grey. Now they had gone white as
snow.
His eyes opened to the sound of Edmure's voice. "Little cat," he murmured in a voice thin and wispy and
wracked by pain. "My little cat." A tremulous smile touched his face as his hand groped for hers. "I
watched for you . . ."
"I shall leave you to talk," her brother said, kissing their lord father gently on the brow before he
withdrew.
Catelyn knelt and took her father's hand in hers. It was a big hand,


but fleshless now, the bones moving loosely under the skin, all the strength gone from it. "You should
have told me," she said. "A rider, a raven . . ."
"Riders are taken, questioned," he answered. "Ravens are brought down . . ." A spasm of pain took him,
and his fingers clutched hers hard. "The crabs are in my belly . . . pinching, always pinching. Day and
night. They have fierce claws, the crabs. Maester Vyman makes me dreamwine, milk of the poppy . . . I
sleep a lot . . . but I wanted to be awake to see you, when you came. I was afraid . . . when the
Lannisters took your brother, the camps all around us . . . was afraid I would go, before I could see you
again . . . I was afraid . ."
"I'm here, Father," she said. "With Robb, my son. He'll want to see you too."
"Your boy," he whispered. "He had my eyes, I remember
"He did, and does. And we've brought you Jaime Lannister, in irons. Riverrun is free again, Father."
Lord Hoster smiled. "I saw. Last night, when it began, I told them . . . had to see. They carried me to the
gatehouse . . . watched from the battlements. Ah, that was beautiful . . . the torches came in a wave, I
could hear the cries floating across the river . .'. sweet cries . . . when that siege tower went up, gods . . .
would have died then, and glad, if only I could have seen you children first. Was it your boy who did it?
Was it your Robb?"
"Yes," Catelyn said, fiercely proud. "It was Robb . . . and Brynden. Your brother is here as well, my
lord."
"Him." Her father's voice was a faint whisper. "The Blackfish . . . came back? From the Vale?"
"Yes.,,


"And Lysa?" A cool wind moved through his thin white hair. "Gods be good, your sister . . . did she
come as well?"
He sounded so full of hope and yearning that it was hard to tell the truth. "No. I'm sorry . . ."
"Oh." His face fell, and some light went out of his eyes. "I'd hoped I would have liked to see her, before
"She's with her son, in the Eyrie."
Lord Hoster gave a weary nod. "Lord Robert now, poor Arryn's gone . . . I remember . . . why did she
not come with you?"
"She is frightened, my lord. In the Eyrie she feels safe." She kissed his wrinkled brow. "Robb will be
waiting. Will you see him? And Brynden?"
"Your son," he whispered. "Yes. Cat's child . . . he had my eyes, I remember. When he was born. Bring
him . . . yes."
"And your brother?"
Her father glanced out over the rivers. "Blackfish," he said. "Has he wed yet? Taken some . . . girl to
wife?"
Even on his deathbed, Catelyn thought sadly. "He has not wed. You know that, Father. Nor will he
ever."


"I told him . . . commanded him. Marry! I was his lord. He knows. My right, to make his match. A good
match. A Redwyne. Old House. Sweet girl, pretty . . . freckles . . . Bethany, yes. Poor child. Still waiting.
Yes. Still . . ."
"Bethany Redwyne wed Lord Rowan years ago," Catelyn reminded him. "She has three children by
him."
"Even so," Lord Hoster muttered. "Even so. Spit on the girl. The Redwynes. Spit on me. His lord, his
brother . . . that Blackfish. I had other offers. Lord Bracken's girl. Walder Frey . . . any of three, he said .
. . Has he wed? Anyone? Anyone?"
"No one," Catelyn said, "yet he has come many leagues to see you, fighting his way back to Riverrun. I
would not be here now, if Ser Brynden had not helped us."
"He was ever a warrior," her father husked. "That he could do. Knight of the Gate, yes." He leaned back
and closed his eyes, inutterably weary. "Send him. Later. I'll sleep now. Too sick to fight. Send him up
later, the Blackfish . . ."
Catelyn kissed him gently, smoothed his hair, and left him there in the shade of his keep, with his rivers
flowing beneath. He was asleep before she left the solar.
When she returned to the lower bailey, Ser Brynden Tully stood on the water stairs with wet boots,
talking with the captain of Riverrun's guards. He came to her at once. "Is he-T'
"Dying," she said. "As we feared."
Her uncle's craggy face showed his pain plain. He ran his fingers through his thick grey hair. "Will he see
me?"
She nodded. "He says he is too sick to fight."


Brynden Blackfish chuckled. "I am too old a soldier to believe that. Hoster will be chiding me about the
Redwyne girl even as we light his funeral pyre, damn his bones."
Catelyn smiled, knowing it was true. "I do not see Robb."
"He went with Greyjoy to the hall, I believe."
Theon Greyjoy was seated on a bench in Riverrun's Great Hall, enjoying a horn of ale and regaling her
father's garrison with an account of the slaughter in the Whispering Wood. "Some tried to flee, but we'd
pinched the valley shut at both ends, and we rode out of the darkness with sword and lance. The
Lannisters must have thought the
Others themselves were on them when that wolf of Robb's got in among them. I saw him tear one man's
arm from his shoulder, and their horses went mad at the scent of him. I couldn't tell you how many men
were thrown-"
"Theon," she interrupted, "where might I find my son?"
"Lord Robb went to visit the godswood, MY lady.,,
It was what Ned would have done. He is his father's son as much as mine, I must remember. Oh, gods,
Ned . . .
She found Robb beneath the green canopy of leaves, surrounded by tall redwoods and great old elms,
kneeling before the heart tree, a slender weirwood with a face more sad than fierce. His longsword was
before him, the point thrust in the earth, his gloved hands clasped around the hilt. Around him others
knelt: Greatjon Umber, Rickard Karstark, Maege Mormont, Galbart Glover, and more. Even Tytos
Blackwood was among them, the great raven cloak fanned out behind him. These are the ones who keep
the old gods, she realized. She asked herself what gods she kept these days, and could not find an
answer.


It would not do to disturb them at their prayers. The gods must have their due . . . even cruel gods who
would take Ned from her, and her lord father as well. So Catelyn waited. The river wind moved through
the high branches, and she could see the Wheel Tower to her right, ivy crawling up its side. As she stood
there, all the memories came flooding back to her. Her father had taught her to ride amongst these trees,
and that was the elm that Edmure had fallen from when he broke his arm, and over there, beneath that
bower, she and Lysa had played at kissing with Petyr.
She had not thought of that in years. How young they all had been-she no older than Sansa, Lysa
younger than Arya, and Petyr younger still, yet eager. The girls had traded him between them, serious
and giggling by turns. It came back to her so vividly she could almost feel his sweaty fingers on her
shoulders and taste the mint on his breath. There was always mint growing in the godswood, and Petyr
had liked to chew it. He had been such a bold little boy, always in trouble. "He tried to put his tongue in
my mouth," Catelyn had confessed to her sister afterward, when they were alone. "He did with me too,"
Lysa had whispered, shy and breathless. "I liked it."
Robb got to his feet slowly and sheathed his sword, and Catelyn found herself wondering whether her
son had ever kissed a girl in the godswood. Surely he must have. She had seen Jeyne Poole giving him
moist-eyed glances, and some of the serving girls, even ones as old as eighteen . . . he had ridden in
battle and killed men with a sword,
surely he had been kissed. There were tears in her eyes. She wiped them away angrily.
"Mother," Robb said when he saw her standing there. "We must call a council. There are things to be
decided."
"Your grandfather would like to see you," she said. "Robb, he's very sick."
"Ser Edmure told me. I am sorry, Mother . . . for Lord Hoster and for you. Yet first we must meet.
We've had word from the south. Renly Baratheon has claimed his brother's crown."


"Renly?" she said, shocked. "I had thought, surely it would be Lord Stannis . . ."
"So did we all, my lady," Galbart Glover said.
The war council convened in the Great Hall, at four long trestle tables arranged in a broken square. Lord
Hoster was too weak to attend, asleep on his balcony, dreaming of the sun on the rivers of his youth.
Edmure sat in the high seat of the Tullys, with Brynden Blackfish at his side, and his father's bannermen
arrayed to right and left and along the side tables. Word of the victory at Riverrun had spread to the
fugitive lords of the Trident, drawing them back. Karyl Vance came in, a lord now, his father dead
beneath the Golden Tooth. Ser Marq Piper was with him, and they brought a Darry, Ser Raymun's son,
a lad no older than Bran. Lord Jonos Bracken arrived from the ruins of Stone Hedge, glowering and
blustering, and took a seat as far from Tytos Blackwood as the tables would permit.
The northern lords sat opposite, with Catelyn and Robb facing her brother across the tables. They were
fewer. The Greatjon sat at Robb's left hand, and then Theon Greyjoy; Galbart Glover and Lady
Mormont were to the right of Catelyn. Lord Rickard Karstark, gaunt and hollow-eyed in his grief, took
his seat like a man in a nightmare, his long beard uncombed and unwashed. He had left two sons dead in
the Whispering Wood, and there was no word of the third, his eldest, who had led the Karstark spears
against Tywin Lannister on the Green Fork.
The arguing raged on late into the night. Each lord had a right to speak, and speak they did . . . and
shout, and curse, and reason, and cajole, and jest, and bargain, and slam tankards on the table, and
threaten, and walk out, and return sullen or smiling. Catelyn sat and listened to it all.
Roose Bolton had re-formed the battered remnants of their other host at the mouth of the causeway. Ser
Helman Tallhart and Walder Frey still held the Twins. Lord Tywin's army had crossed the Trident,
and was making for Harrenhal. And there were two kings in the realm. Two kings, and no agreement.
Many of the lords bannermen wanted to march on Harrenhal at once, to meet Lord Tywin and end
Lannister power for all time. Young, hot-tempered Marq Piper urged a strike west at Casterly Rock
instead. Still others counseled patience. Riverrun sat athwart the Lannister supply lines, Jason Mallister
pointed out; let them bide their time, denying Lord Tywin fresh levies and provisions while they


strengthened their defenses and rested their weary troops. Lord Blackwood would have none of it. They
should finish the work they began in the Whispering Wood. March to Harrenhal and bring Roose
Bolton's army down as well. What Blackwood urged, Bracken opposed, as ever; Lord Jonos Bracken
rose to insist they ought pledge their fealty to King Renly, and move south to join their might to his.
"Renly is not the king," Robb said. It was the first time her son had spoken. Like his father, he knew how
to listen.
"You cannot mean to hold to Joffrey, my lord," Galbart Glover said. "He put your father to death."
"That makes him evil," Robb replied. "I do not know that it makes Renly king. Joffrey is still Robert's
eldest trueborn son, so the throne is rightfully his by all the laws of the realm. Were he to die, and I mean
to see that he does, he has a younger brother. Tommen is next in line after Joffrey."
"Tommen is no less a Lannister," Ser Marq Piper snapped.
"As you say," said Robb, troubled. "Yet if neither one is king, still, how could it be Lord Renly? He's
Robert's younger brother. Bran can't be Lord of Winterfell before me, and Renly can't be king before
Lord Stannis."
Lady Mormont agreed. "Lord Stannis has the better claim."
"Renly is crowned," said Marq Piper. "Highgarden and Storm's End support his claim, and the
Dornishmen will not be laggardly. If Winterfell and Riverrun add their strength to his, he will have five of
the seven great houses behind him. Six, if the Arryns bestir themselves! Six against the Rock! My lords,
within the year, we will have all their heads on pikes, the queen and the boy king, Lord Tywin, the Imp,
the Kingslayer, Ser Kevan, all of them! That is what we shall win if we join with King Renly. What does
Lord Stannis have against that, that we should cast it all aside?"
"The right," said Robb stubbornly. Catelyn thought he sounded eerily like his father as he said it.
"So you mean us to declare for Stannis?" asked Edmure.


"I don't know," said Robb. "I prayed to know what to do, but the
gods did not answer. The Lannisters killed my father for a traitor, and we know that was a lie, but if
Joffrey is the lawful king and we fight against him, we will be traitors."
"My lord father would urge caution," aged Ser Stevron said, with the weaselly smile of a Frey. "Wait, let
these two kings play their game of thrones. When they are done fighting, we can bend our knees to the
victor, or oppose him, as we choose. With Renly arming, likely Lord Tywin would welcome a truce . . .
and the safe return of his son. Noble lords, allow me to go to him at Harrenhal and arrange good terms
and ransoms . . ."
A roar of outrage drowned out his voice. "Craven!" the Greatjon thundered. "Begging for a truce will
make us seem weak," declared Lady Mormont. "Ransoms be damned, we must not give up the
Kingslayer," shouted Rickard Karstark.
"Why not a peace?" Catelyn asked.
The lords looked at her, but it was Robb's eyes she felt, his and his alone. "My lady, they murdered my
lord father, your husband," he said grimly. He unsheathed his longsword and laid it on the table before
him, the bright steel on the rough wood. "This is the only peace I have for Lannisters."
The Greatjon bellowed his approval, and other men added their voices, shouting and drawing swords
and pounding their fists on the table. Catelyn waited until they had quieted. "My lords," she said then,
"Lord Eddard was your liege, but I shared his bed and bore his children. Do you think I love him any less
than you?" Her voice almost broke with her grief, but Catelyn took a long breath and steadied herself.
"Robb, if that sword could bring him back, I should never let you sheathe it until Ned stood at my side
once more . . . but he is gone, and hundred Whispering Woods will not change that. Ned is gone, and
Daryn Hornwood, and Lord Karstark's valiant sons, and many other good men besides, and none of
them will return to us. Must we have more deaths still?"
"You are a woman, my lady," the Greatjon rumbled in his deep voice. "Women do not understand these


things."
"You are the gentle sex," said Lord Karstark, with the lines of grief fresh on his face. "A man has a need
for vengeance."
"Give me Cersei Lannister, Lord Karstark, and you would see how gentle a woman can be," Catelyn
replied. "Perhaps I do not understand tactics and strategy . . . but I understand futility. We went to war
when Lannister armies were ravaging the riverlands, and Ned was a prisoner, falsely accused of treason.
We fought to defend ourselves, and to win my lord's freedom.
"Well, the one is done, and the other forever beyond our reach. I will mourn for Ned until the end of my
days, but I must think of the living. I want my daughters back, and the queen holds them still. If I must
trade our four Lannisters for their two Starks, I will call that a bargain and thank the gods. I want you
safe, Robb, ruling at Winterfell from your father's seat. I want you to live your life, to kiss a girl and wed
a woman and father a son. I want to write an end to this. I want to go home, my lords, and weep for my
husband."
The hall was very quiet when Catelyn finished speaking.
"Peace," said her uncle Brynden. "Peace is sweet, my lady . . . but on what terms? It is no good
hammering your sword into a plowshare if you must forge it again on the morrow."
"What did Torrhen and my Eddard die for, if I am to return to Karhold with nothing but their bones?"
asked Rickard Karstark.
"Aye," said Lord Bracken. "Gregor Clegane laid waste to my fields, slaughtered my smallfolk, and left
Stone Hedge a smoking ruin. Am I now to bend the knee to the ones who sent him? What have we
fought for, if we are to put all back as it was before?"
Lord Blackwood agreed, to Catelyn's surprise and dismay. "And if we do make peace with King
Joffrey, are we not then traitors to King Renly? What if the stag should prevail against the lion, where


would that leave us?"
"Whatever you may decide for yourselves, I shall never call a Lannister my king," declared Marq Piper.
"Nor P" yelled the little Darry boy. "I never will!"
Again the shouting began. Catelyn sat despairing. She had come so close, she thought. They had almost
listened, almost . . . but the moment was gone. There would be no peace, no chance to heal, no safety.
She looked at her son, watched him as he listened to the lords debate, frowning, troubled, yet wedded to
his war. He had pledged himself to marry a daughter of Walder Frey, but she saw his true bride plain
before her now: the sword he had laid on the table.
Catelyn was thinking of her girls, wondering if she would ever see them again, when the Greatjon lurched
to his feet.
"MYLORDS!" he shouted, his voice booming off the rafters. "Here is what I say to these two kings!" He
spat. " Renly Baratheon is nothing to me, nor Stannis neither. Why should they rule over me and mine,
from some flowery seat in Highgarden or Dorne? What do they know of the Wall or the wolfswood or
the barrows of the First Men? Even their gods are wrong. The Others take the Lannisters too, I've had a
bellyful of them." He reached back over his shoulder and drew his immense two-handed greatsword.
"Why shouldn't we rule ourselves
again? It was the dragons we married, and the dragons are all dead!" He pointed at Robb with the
blade. "There sits the only king I mean to bow my knee to, m'lords," he thundered. "The King in the
North!"
And he knelt, and laid his sword at her son's feet.
"I'll have peace on those terms," Lord Karstark said. "They can keep their red castle and their iron chair
as well." He eased his longsword from its scabbard. "The King in the North!" he said, kneeling beside the
Greatjon.


Maege Mormont stood. "The King of Winter!" she declared, and laid her spiked mace beside the
swords. And the river lords were rising too, Blackwood and Bracken and Mallister, houses who had
never been ruled from Winterfell, yet Catelyn watched them rise and draw their blades, bending their
knees and shouting the old words that had not been heard in the realm for more than three hundred
years, since Aegon the Dragon had come to make the Seven Kingdoms one . . . yet now were heard
again, ringing from the timbers of her father's hall:
"The King in the North!"
"The King in the North!"
"THE KING IN THE NORTH!"
DAFNERYS
The land was red and dead and parched, and good wood was hard to come by. Her foragers returned
with gnarled cottonwoods, purple brush, sheaves of brown grass. They took the two straightest trees,
hacked the limbs and branches from them, skinned off their bark, and split them, laying the logs in a
square. Its center they filled with straw, brush, bark shavings, and bundles of dry grass. Rakharo chose a
stallion from the small herd that remained to them; he was not the equal of Khal Drogo's red, but few
horses were. In the center of the square, Aggo fed him a withered apple and dropped him in an instant
with an axe blow between the eyes.
Bound hand and foot, Mirri Maz Duur watched from the dust with disquiet in her black eyes. "It is not
enough to kill a horse," she told Dany. "By itself, the blood is nothing. You do not have the words to
make a spell, nor the wisdom to find them. Do you think bloodmagic is a game for children? You call me
maegi as if it were a curse, but all it means is wise. You are a child, with a child's ignorance. Whatever
you mean to do, it will not work. Loose me from these bonds and I will help you."
"I am tired of the maegi's braying," Dany told Jhogo. He took his whip to her, and after that the godswife
kept silent.


Over the carcass of the horse, they built a platform of hewn logs; trunks of smaller trees and limbs from
the greater, and the thickest
I
9
straightest branches they could find. They laid the wood east to west, from sunrise to sunset. On the
platform they piled Khal Drogo's treasures: his great tent, his painted vests, his saddles and harness, the
whip his father had given him when he came to manhood, the arakh he had used to slay Khal Ogo and
his son, a mighty dragonbone bow. Aggo would have added the weapons Drogo's bloodriders had given
Dany for bride gifts as well, but she forbade it. "Those are mine," she told him, "and I mean to keep
them." Another layer of brush was piled about the khal's treasures, and bundles of dried grass scattered
over them.
Ser Jorah Mormont drew her aside as the sun was creeping toward its zenith. "Princess . . ." he began.
"Why do you call me that?" Dany challenged him. "My brother Viserys was your king, was he not?"
"He was, my lady."
"Viserys is dead. I am his heir, the last blood of House Targaryen. Whatever was his is mine now."
"My . . . queen," Ser Jorah said, going to one knee. "My sword that was his is yours, Dacnerys. And my
heart as well, that never belonged to your brother. I am only a knight, and I have nothing to offer you but
exile, but I beg you, hear me. Let Khal Drogo go. You shall not be alone. I promise you, no man shall
take you to Vaes Dothrak unless you wish to go. You need not join the dosh khaleen. Come east with
me. Yi Ti, Oarth, the Jade Sea, Asshai by the Shadow. We will see all the wonders yet unseen, and
drink what wines the gods see fit to serve us. Please, Khaleesi. I know what you intend. Do not. Do not."
"I must," Dany told him. She touched his face, fondly, sadly. "You do not understand."


A understand that you loved him," Ser Jorah said in a voice thick with despair. "I loved my lady wife
once, yet I did not die with her. You are my queen, my sword is yours, but do not ask me to stand aside
as you climb on Drogo's pyre. I will not watch you burn."
"Is that what you fear?" Dany kissed him lightly on his broad forehead. "I am not such a child as that,
sweet ser."
"You do not mean to die with him? You swear it, my queen?"
A swear it," she said in the Common Tongue of the Seven Kingdoms that by rights were hers.
The third level of the platform was woven of branches no thicker than a finger, and covered with dry
leaves and twigs. They laid them north to south, from ice to fire, and piled them high with soft cushions
and sleeping silks. The sun had begun to lower toward the west by the
time they were done. Dany called the Dothraki around her. Fewer than a hundred were left. How many
had Aegon started with? she wondered. It did not matter.
"You will be my khalasar," she told them. "I see the faces of slaves. I free you. Take off your collars. Go
if you wish, no one shall harm you. If you stay, it will be as brothers and sisters, husbands and wives."
The black eyes watched her, wary, expressionless. "I see the children, women, the wrinkled faces of the
aged. I was a child yesterday. Today I am a woman. Tomorrow I will be old. To each of you I say, give
me your hands and your hearts, and there will always be a place for you." She turned to the three young
warriors of her khas. "Jhogo, to you I give the silver-handled whip that was my bride gift, and name you
ko, and ask your oath, that you will live and die as blood of my blood, riding at my side to keep me safe
from harm."
Jhogo took the whip from her hands, but his face was confused. "Khaleesi, " he said hesitantly, "this is
not done. It would shame me, to be bloodrider to a woman."


"Aggo," Dany called, paying no heed to Jhogo's words. If I look back I am lost. "To you I give the
dragonbone bow that was my bride gift." It was double-curved, shiny black and exquisite, taller than she
was. "I name you ko, and ask your oath, that you should live and die as blood of my blood, riding at my
side to keep me safe from harm."
Aggo accepted the bow with lowered eyes. "I cannot say these words. Only a man can lead a khalasar
or name a ko."
"Rakharo," Dany said, turning away from the refusal, "you shall have the great arakh that was my bride
gift, with hilt and blade chased in gold. And you too I name my ko, and ask that you live and die as blood
of my blood, riding at my side to keep me safe from harm."
"You are khaleesi," Rakharo said, taking the arakh. "I shall ride at your side to Vaes Dothrak beneath
the Mother of Mountains, and keep you safe from harm until you take your place with the crones of the
dosh khaleen. No more can I promise."
She nodded, as calmly as if she had not heard his answer, and turned to the last of her champions. "Ser
Jorah Mormont," she said, "first and greatest of my knights, I have no bride gift to give you, but I swear
to you, one day you shall have from my hands a longsword like none the world has ever seen,
dragon-forged and made of Valyrian steel. And I would ask for your oath as well."
"You have it, my queen," Ser Jorah said, kneeling to lay his sword at her feet. "I vow to serve you, to
obey you, to die for you if need be."
"Whatever may come?"
"Whatever may come."
"I shall hold you to that oath. I pray you never regret the giving of it." Dany lifted him to his feet.


Stretching on her toes to reach his lips, she kissed the knight gently and said, "You are the first of my
Queensguard."
She could feel the eyes of the khalasar on her as she entered her tent. The Dothraki were muttering and
giving her strange sideways looks from the corners of their dark almond eyes. They thought her mad,
Dany realized. Perhaps she was. She would know soon enough. If I look back I am lost.
Her bath was scalding hot when Irri helped her into the tub, but Dany did not flinch or cry aloud. She
liked the heat. It made her feel clean. Jhiqui had scented the water with the oils she had found in the
market in Vaes Dothrak; the steam rose moist and fragrant. Doreah washed her hair and combed it out,
working loose the mats and tangles. Irri scrubbed her back. Dany closed her eyes and let the smell and
the warmth enfold her. She could feel the heat soaking through the soreness between her thighs. She
shuddered when it entered her, and her pain and stiffness seemed to dissolve. She floated.
When she was clean, her handmaids helped her from the water. Irri and Jhiqui fanned her dry, while
Doreah brushed her hair until it fell like a river of liquid silver down her back. They scented her with
spiceflower and cinnamon; a touch on each wrist, behind her ears, on the tips of her milk-heavy breasts.
The last dab was for her sex. Irri's finger felt as light and cool as a lover's kiss as it slid softly up between
her lips.
Afterward, Dany sent them all away, so she might prepare Khal Drogo for his final ride into the night
lands. She washed his body clean and brushed and oiled his hair, running her fingers through it for the last
time, feeling the weight of it, remembering the first time she had touched it, the night of their wedding ride.
His hair had never been cut. How many men could die with their hair uncut? She buried her face in it and
inhaled the dark fragrance of the oils. He smelled like grass and warm earth, like smoke and semen and
horses. He smelled like Drogo. Forgive me, sun of my life, she thought. Forgive me for all I have done
and all I must do. I paid the price, my star, but it was too high, too high . . .
Dany braided his hair and slid the silver rings onto his mustache and hung his bells one by one. So many
bells, gold and silver and bronze. Bells so his enemies would hear him coming and grow weak with fear.
She dressed him in horsehair leggings and high boots, buckling a belt heavy with gold and silver
medallions about his waist. Over his scarred chest she slipped a painted vest, old and faded, the one
Drogo had
loved best. For herself she chose loose sandsilk trousers, sandals that laced halfway up her legs, and a


vest like Drogo's.
The sun was going down when she called them back to carry his body to the pyre. The Dothraki
watched in silence as Jhogo and Aggo bore him from the tent. Dany walked behind them. They laid him
down on his cushions and silks, his head toward the Mother of Mountains far to the northeast.
"Oil," she commanded, and they brought forth the jars and poured them over the pyre, soaking the silks
and the brush and the bundles of dry grass, until the oil trickled from beneath the logs and the air was rich
with fragrance. "Bring my eggs," Dany commanded her handmaids. Something in her voice made them
run.
Ser Jorah took her arm. "My queen, Drogo will have no use for dragon's eggs in the night lands. Better
to sell them in Asshai. Sell one and we can buy a ship to take us back to the Free Cities. Sell all three
and you will be a wealthy woman all your days."
"They were not given to me to sell," Dany told him.
She climbed the pyre herself to place the eggs around her sun-andstars. The black beside his heart,
under his arm. The green beside his head, his braid coiled around it. The cream-and-gold down between
his legs. When she kissed him for the last time, Dany could taste the sweetness of the oil on his lips.
As she climbed down off the pyre, she noticed Mirri Maz Duur watching her. "You are mad," the
godswife said hoarsely.
"Is it so far from madness to wisdom?" Dany asked. "Ser Jorah, take this maegi and bind her to the
pyre."
"To the . . . my queen, no, hear me . . ."
"Do as I say." Still he hesitated, until her anger flared. "You swore to obey me, whatever might come.
Rakharo, help him."


The godswife did not cry out as they dragged her to Khal Drogo's pyre and staked her down amidst his
treasures. Dany poured the oil over the woman's head herself. "I thank you, Mirri Maz Duur," she said,
"for the lessons you have taught me."
"You will not hear me scream," Mirri responded as the oil dripped from her hair and soaked her
clothing.
"I will," Dany said, "but it is not your screams I want, only your life. I remember what you told me. Only
death can pay for life." Mirri Maz Duur opened her mouth, but made no reply. As she stepped away,
Dany saw that the contempt was gone from the maegi's flat black eyes; in its place was something that
might have been fear. Then there was nothing to be done but watch the sun and look for the first star.
When a horselord dies, his horse is slain with him, so he might ride
A GAME, OF THRONLS 703
proud into the night lands. The bodies are burned beneath the open sky, and the khal rises on his fiery
steed to take his place among the stars. The more fiercely the man burned in life, the brighter his star will
shine in the darkness.
Jhogo spied it first. "There, " he said in a hushed voice. Dany looked and saw it, low in the east. The first
star was a comet, burning red. Bloodred; fire red; the dragon's tail. She could not have asked for a
stronger sign.
Dany took the torch from Aggo's hand and thrust it between the logs. The oil took the fire at once, the
brush and dried grass a heartbeat later. Tiny flames went darting up the wood like swift red mice, skating
over the oil and leaping from bark to branch to leaf. A rising heat puffed at her face, soft and sudden as a
lover's breath, but in seconds it had grown too hot to bear. Dany stepped backward. The wood
crackled, louder and louder. Mirri Maz Duur began to sing in a shrill, ululating voice. The flames whirled
and writhed, racing each other up the platform. The dusk shimmered as the air itself seemed to liquefy
from the heat. Dany heard logs spit and crack. The fires swept over Mirri Maz Duur. Her song grew
louder, shriller . . . then she gasped, again and again, and her song became a shuddering wail, thin and
high and full of agony.


And now the flames reached her Drogo, and now they were all around him. His clothing took fire, and
for an instant the khal was clad in wisps of floating orange silk and tendrils of curling smoke, grey and
greasy. Dany's lips parted and she found herself holding her breath. Part of her wanted to go to him as
Ser Jorah had feared, to rush into the flames to beg for his forgiveness and take him inside her one last
time, the fire melting the flesh from their bones until they were as one, forever.
She could smell the odor of burning flesh, no different than horseflesh roasting in a firepit. The pyre
roared in the deepening dusk like some great beast, drowning out the fainter sound of Mirri Maz Duur's
screaming and sending up long tongues of flame to lick at the belly of the night. As the smoke grew
thicker, the Dothraki backed away, coughing. Huge orange gouts of fire unfurled their banners in that
hellish wind, the logs hissing and cracking, glowing cinders rising on the smoke to float away into the dark
like so many newborn fireflies. The heat beat at the air with great red wings, driving the Dothraki back,
driving off even Mormont, but Dany stood her ground. She was the blood of the dragon, and the fire was
in her.
She had sensed the truth of it long ago, Dany thought as she took a step closer to the conflagration, but
the brazier had not been hot
enough. The flames writhed before her like the women who had danced at her wedding, whirling and
singing and spinning their yellow and orange and crimson veils, fearsome to behold, yet lovely, so lovely,
alive with heat. Dany opened her arms to them, her skin flushed and glowing. This is a wedding, too, she
thought. Mirri Maz Duur had fallen silent. The godswife thought her a child, but children grow, and
children learn.
Another step, and Dany could feel the heat of the sand on the soles of her feet, even through her sandals.
Sweat ran down her thighs and between her breasts and in rivulets over her cheeks, where tears had
once run. Ser Jorah was shouting behind her, but he did not matter anymore, only the fire mattered. The
flames were so beautiful, the loveliest things she had ever seen, each one a sorcerer robed in yellow and
orange and scarlet, swirling long smoky cloaks. She saw crimson firelions and great yellow serpents and
unicorns made of pale blue flame; she saw fish and foxes and monsters, wolves and bright birds and
flowering trees, each more beautiful than the last. She saw a horse, a great grey stallion limned in smoke,
its flowing mane a nimbus of blue flame. Yes, my love, my sun-and-stars, yes, mount now, tide now.
Her vest had begun to smolder, so Dany shrugged it off and let it fall to the ground. The painted leather
burst into sudden flame as she skipped closer to the fire, her breasts bare to the blaze, streams of milk
flowing from her red and swollen nipples. Now, she thought, now, and for an instant she glimpsed Khal
Drogo before her, mounted on his smoky stallion, a flaming lash in his hand. He smiled, and the whip


snaked down at the pyre, hissing.
She heard a crack, the sound of shattering stone. The platform of wood and brush and grass began to
shift and collapse in upon itself. Bits of burning wood slid down at her, and Dany was showered with ash
and cinders. And something else came crashing down, bouncing and rolling, to land at her feet; a chunk
of curved rock, pale and veined with gold, broken and smoking. The roaring filled the world, yet dimly
through the firefall Dany heard women shriek and children cry out in wonder.
Only death can pay for life.
And there came a second crack, loud and sharp as thunder, and the smoke stirred and whirled around
her and the pyre shifted, the logs exploding as the fire touched their secret hearts. She heard the screams
of frightened horses, and the voices of the Dothraki raised in shouts of fear and terror, and Ser Jorah
calling her name and cursing. No, she wanted to shout to him, no, my good knight, do not fear.for me.
The fire is mine. I am Daenerys Stormborn, daughter of dragons, bride of
dragons, mother of dragons, don't you see? Don't you SEE? With a belch of flame and smoke that
reached thirty feet into the sky, the pyre collapsed and came down around her. Unafraid, Dany stepped
forward into the firestorm, calling to her children.
The third crack was as loud and sharp as the breaking of the world.
When the fire died at last and the ground became cool enough to walk upon, Ser Jorah Mormont found
her amidst the ashes, surrounded by blackened logs and bits of glowing ember and the burnt bones of
man and woman and stallion. She was naked, covered with soot, her clothes turned to ash, her beautiful
hair all crisped away . . . yet she was unhurt.
The cream-and-gold dragon was suckling at her left breast, the green-and-bronze at the right. Her arms
cradled them close. The black-and-scarlet beast was draped across her shoulders, its long sinuous neck
coiled under her chin. When it saw Jorah, it raised its head and looked at him with eyes as red as coals.


Wordless, the knight fell to his knees. The men of her khas came up behind him. Jhogo was the first to
lay his arakh at her feet. "Blood of my blood," he murmured, pushing his face to the smoking earth.
"Blood of my blood," she heard Aggo echo. "Blood of my blood," Rakharo shouted.
And after them came her handmaids, and then the others, all the Dothraki, men and women and children,
and Dany had only to look at their eyes to know that they were hers now, today and tomorrow and
forever, hers as they had never been Drogo's.
As Daenerys Targaryen rose to her feet, her black hissed, pale smoke venting from its mouth and
nostrils. The other two pulled away from her breasts and added their voices to the call, translucent wings
unfolding and stirring the air, and for the first time in hundreds of years, the night came alive with the
music of dragons.


A Clash of Kings
Book Two of A song of Ice and Fire
By George R. R. Martin
PROLOGUE
The comet's tail spread across the dawn, a red slash that bled above the crags of Dragonstone like a
wound in the pink and purple sky.
The maester stood on the windswept balcony outside his chambers. It was here the ravens came, after
long flight. Their droppings speckled the gargoyles that rose twelve feet tall on either side of him, a
hellhound and a wyvern, two of the thousand that brooded over the walls of the ancient fortress. When
first he came to Dragonstone, the army of stone grotesques had made him uneasy, but as the years
passed he had grown used to them. Now he thought of them as old friends. The three of them watched
the sky together with foreboding.
The maester did not believe in omens. And yet . . . old as he was, Cressen had never seen a comet half
so bright, nor yet that color, that terrible color, the color of blood and flame and sunsets. He wondered if
his gargoyles had ever seen its like. They had been here so much longer than he had, and would still be
here long after he was gone. If stone tongues could speak . . .
Such folly. He leaned against the battlement, the sea crashing beneath him, the black stone rough
beneath his fingers. Talking gargoyles and prophecies in the sky. I am an old done man, grown giddy as a
child again. Had a lifetime's hard-won wisdom fled him along with his health and strength? He was a
maester, trained and chained in the great Citadel
of Oldtown. What had he come to, when superstition filled his head as if he were an ignorant fieldhand?
And yet . . . and yet . . . the comet burned even by day now, while pale grey steam rose from the hot
vents of Dragonmont behind the castle, and yestermorn a white raven had brought word from the Citadel
itself, word long-expected but no less fearful for all that, word of summer's end. Omens, all. Too many to
deny. What does it all mean? he wanted to cry.


"Maester Cressen, we have visitors." Pylos spoke softly, as if loath to disturb Cressen's solemn
meditations. Had he known what drivel filled his head, he would have shouted. "The princess would see
the white raven." Ever correct, Pylos called her princess now, as her lord father was a king. King of a
smoking rock in the great salt sea, yet a king nonetheless. "Her fool is with her."
The old man turned away from the dawn, keeping a hand on his wyvern to steady himself. "Help me to
my chair and show them in."
Taking his arm, Pylos led him inside. In his youth, Cressen had walked briskly, but he was not far from
his eightieth name day now, and his legs were frail and unsteady. Two years past, he had fallen and
shattered a hip, and it had never mended properly. Last year when he took ill, the Citadel had sent Pylos
out from Oldtown, mere days before Lord Stannis had closed the isle . . . to help him in his labors, it was
said, but Cressen knew the truth. Pylos had come to replace him when he died. He did not mind.
Someone must take his place, and sooner than he would like . . .
He let the younger man settle him behind his books and papers. "Go bring her. It is ill to keep a lady
waiting." He waved a hand, a feeble gesture of haste from a man no longer capable of hastening. His flesh
was wrinkled and spotted, the skin so papery thin that he could see the web of veins and the shape of
bones beneath. And how they trembled, these hands of his that had once been so sure and deft . . .
When Pylos returned the girl came with him, shy as ever. Behind her, shuffling and hopping in that queer
sideways walk of his, came her fool. On his head was a mock helm fashioned from an old tin bucket,
with a rack of deer antlers strapped to the crown and hung with cowbells. With his every lurching step,
the bells rang, each with a different voice, clang-a-dang bong-dong ring-a-ling clong clong clong.
"Who comes to see us so early, Pylos?" Cressen said.
"It's me and Patches, Maester." Guileless blue eyes blinked at him. Hers was not a pretty face, alas. The
child had her lord father's square jut of jaw and her mother's unfortunate ears, along with a disfigurement
all her own, the legacy of the bout of greyscale that had almost claimed her in the crib. Across half one
cheek and well down her neck, her flesh was
stiff and dead, the skin cracked and flaking, mottled black and grey and stony to the touch. "Pylos said
we might see the white raven."
"Indeed you may," Cressen answered. As if he would ever deny her. She had been denied too often in
her time. Her name was Shireen. She would be ten on her next name day, and she was the saddest child
that Maester Cressen had ever known. Her sadness is my shame, the old man thought, another mark of
my failure. "Maester Pylos, do me a kindness and bring the bird down from the rookery for the Lady
Shireen."
"It would be my pleasure." Pylos was a polite youth, no more than five-and-twenty, yet solemn as a man
of sixty. If only he had more humor, more life in him; that was what was needed here. Grim places
needed lightening, not solemnity, and Dragonstone was grim beyond a doubt, a lonely citadel in the wet
waste surrounded by storm and salt, with the smoking shadow of the mountain at its back. A maester
must go where he is sent, so Cressen had come here with his lord some twelve years past, and he had
served, and served well. Yet he had never loved Dragonstone, nor ever felt truly at home here. Of late,
when he woke from restless dreams in which the red woman figured disturbingly, he often did not know
where he was.


The fool turned his patched and piebald head to watch Pylos climb the steep iron steps to the rookery.
His bells rang with the motion. "Under the sea, the birds have scales for feathers," he said,
clang-a-langing. "I know, I know, oh, oh, oh."
Even for a fool, Patchface was a sorry thing. Perhaps once he could evoke gales of laughter with a quip,
but the sea had taken that power from him, along with half his wits and all his memory. He was soft and
obese, subject to twitches and trembles, incoherent as often as not. The girl was the only one who
laughed at him now, the only one who cared if he lived or died.
An ugly little girl and a sad fool, and maester makes three . . . now there is a tale to make men weep.
"Sit with me, child." Cressen beckoned her closer. "This is early to come calling, scarce past dawn. You
should be snug in your bed."
"I had bad dreams," Shireen told him. "About the dragons. They were coming to eat me."
The child had been plagued by nightmares as far back as Maester Cressen could recall. "We have
talked of this before," he said gently. "The dragons cannot come to life. They are carved of stone, child.
In olden days, our island was the westernmost outpost of the great Freehold of Valyria. It was the
Valyrians who raised this citadel, and they had ways of shaping stone since lost to us. A castle must have
towers wherever two walls meet at an angle, for defense. The Valyrians fashioned these towers in the
shape of dragons to make their fortress seem more fearsome,
just as they crowned their walls with a thousand gargoyles instead of simple crenellations." He
took her small pink hand in his own frail spotted one and gave it a gentle squeeze. "So you see, there is
nothing to fear. "
Shireen was unconvinced. "What about the thing in the sky? Dalla and Matrice were talking by the well,
and Dalla said she heard the red woman tell Mother that it was dragonshreath. If the dragons are
breathing, doesn't that mean they are coming to life?"
The red woman, Maester Cressen thought sourly.Illenough that she's filled the head of the mother with
her madness, must she poison the daughter's dreams as well? He would have a stern word with Dalla,
warn her not to spread such tales. "The thing in the sky is a comet, sweet child. A star with a tail, lost in
the heavens. It will be gone soon enough, never to be seen again in our lifetimes. Watch and see."
Shireen gave a brave little nod. "Mother said the white raven means it's not summer anymore."
"That is so, my lady. The white ravens fly only from the Citadel." Cressen's fingers went to the chain
about his neck, each link forged from a different metal, each symbolizing his mastery of another branch of
learning; the maester's collar, mark of his order. In the pride of his youth, he had worn it easily, but now it
seemed heavy to him, the metal cold against his skin. "They are larger than other ravens, and more clever,
bred to carry only the most important messages. This one came to tell us that the Conclave has met,
considered the reports and measurements made by maesters all over the realm, and declared this great
summer done at last. Ten years, two turns, and sixteen days it lasted, the longest summer in living
memory."
"Will it get cold now?" Shireen was a summer child, and had never known true cold.
"In time," Cressen replied. "If the gods are good, they will grant us a warm autumn and bountiful
harvests, so we might prepare for the winter to come." The smallfolk said that a long summer meant an
even longer winter, but the maester saw no reason to frighten the child with such tales.


Patchface rang his bells. "It is always summer under the sea," he intoned. "The merwives wear
nennymoans in their hair and weave gowns of silver seaweed. I know, I know, oh, oh, oh."
Shireen giggled. "I should like a gown of silver seaweed."
"Under the sea, it snows up," said the fool, "and the rain is dry as bone. I know, I know, oh, oh, oh."
"Will it truly snow?" the child asked.
"It will," Cressen said. But not for years yet, I pray, and then not for long. "Ah, here is Pylos with the
bird."
Shireen gave a cry of delight. Even Cressen had to admit the bird made an impressive sight, white as
snow and larger than any hawk, with the bright black eyes that meant it was no mere albino, but a
truebred white raven of the Citadel. "Here," he called. The raven spread its wings, leapt into the air, and
flapped noisily across the room to land on the table beside him.
"I'll see to your breakfast now," Pylos announced. Cressen nodded. "This is the Lady Shireen," he told
the raven. The bird bobbed its pale head up and down, as if it were bowing. "Lady," it croaked. "Lady."
The child's mouth gaped open. "It talks!"
"A few words. As I said, they are clever, these birds."
"Clever bird, clever man, clever clever fool," said Patchface, jangling. "Oh, clever clever clever fool." He
began to sing. "The shadows come to dance, my lord, dance my lord, dance my lord," he sang, hopping
from one foot to the other and back again. "The shadows come to stay, my lord, stay my lord, stay my
lord. " He jerked his head with each word, the bells in his antlers sending up a clangor.
The white raven screamed and went flapping away to perch on the iron railing of the rookery stairs.
Shireen seemed to grow smaller. "He sings that all the time. I told him to stop but he won't. It makes me
scared. Make him stop."
And how do I do that? the old man wondered. Once I might have silenced him forever, but now . . .
Patchface had come to them as a boy. Lord Steffon of cherished memory had found him in Volantis,
across the narrow sea. The king-the old king, Aerys II Targaryen, who had not been quite so mad in
those dayshad sent his lordship to seek a bride for Prince Rhaegar, who had no sisters to wed. "We have
found the most splendid fool," he wrote Cressen, a fortnight before he was to return home from his
fruitless mission. "Only a boy, yet nimble as a monkey and witty as a dozen courtiers. He juggles and
riddles and does magic, and he can sing prettily in four tongues. We have bought his freedom and hope
to bring him home with us. Robert will be delighted with him, and perhaps in time he will even teach
Stannis how to laugh."
It saddened Cressen to remember that letter. No one had ever taught Stannis how to laugh, least of all
the boy Patchface. The storm came up suddenly, howling, and Shipbreaker Bay proved the truth of its
name. The lord's two-masted galley Windproud broke up within sight of his castle. From its parapets his
two eldest sons had watched as their father's ship was smashed against the rocks and swallowed by the
waters. A hundred oarsmen and sailors went down with Lord Steffon Baratheon and his lady wife, and
for days thereafter every tide left a fresh crop of swollen corpses on the strand below Storm's End.


The boy washed up on the third day. Maester Cressen had come down with the rest, to help put names
to the dead. When they found the fool he was naked, his skin white and wrinkled and powdered with
wet sand. Cressen had thought him another corpse, but when Jornmy grabbed his ankles to drag him off
to the burial wagon, the boy coughed water and sat up. To his dying day, Jornmy had sworn that
Patchface's flesh was clammy cold.
No one ever explained those two days the fool had been lost in the sea. The fisherfolk liked to say a
mermaid had taught him to breathe water in return for his seed. Patchface himself had said nothing. The
witty, clever lad that Lord Steffon had written of never reached Storm's End; the boy they found was
someone else, broken in body and mind, hardly capable of speech, much less of wit. Yet his fool's face
left no doubt of who he was. It was the fashion in the Free City of Volantis to tattoo the faces of slaves
and servants; from neck to scalp the boy's skin had been patterned in squares of red and green motley.
"The wretch is mad, and in pain, and no use to anyone, least of all himself," declared old Ser Harbert,
the castellan of Storm's End in those years. "The kindest thing you could do for that one is fill his cup with
the milk of the poppy. A painless sleep, and there's an end to it. He'd bless you if he had the wit for it."
But Cressen had refused, and in the end he had won. Whether Patchface had gotten any joy of that
victory he could not say, not even today, so many years later.
"The shadows come to dance, my lord, dance my lord, dance my lord " the fool sang on, swinging his
head and making his bells clang and clatter. Bong dong, ring-a-ling, bong dong.
"Lord," the white raven shrieked. "Lord, lord, lord."
"A fool sings what he will," the maester told his anxious princess. "You must not take his words to heart.
On the morrow he may remember another song, and this one will never be heard again." He can sing
prettily in four tongues, Lord Steffon had written . . .
Pylos strode through the door. "Maester, pardons."
"You have forgotten the porridge," Cressen said, amused. That was most unlike Pylos.
"Maester, Ser Davos returned last night. They were talking of it in the kitchen. I thought you would want
to know at once."
"Davos . . . last night, you say? Where is he?"
"With the king. They have been together most of the night."
There was a time when Lord Stannis would have woken him, no matter the hour, to have him there to
give his counsel. "I should have been told," Cressen complained. "I should have been woken." He
disentangled his fingers from Shireen's. "Pardons, my lady, but I must speak with your lord father. Pylos,
give me your arm. There are too many steps in
this castle, and it seems to me they add a few every night, just to vex me.
Shireen and Patchface followed them out, but the child soon grew restless with the old man's creeping
pace and dashed ahead, the fool lurching after her with his cowbells clanging madly.
Castles are not friendly places for the frail, Cressen was reminded as he descended the turnpike stairs of


Sea Dragon Tower. Lord Stannis would be found in the Chamber of the Painted Table, atop the Stone
Drum, Dragonstone's central keep, so named for the way its ancient walls boomed and rumbled during
storms. To reach him they must cross the gallery, pass through the middle and inner walls with their
guardian gargoyles and black iron gates, and ascend more steps than Cressen cared to contemplate.
Young men climbed steps two at a time; for old men with bad hips, every one was a torment. But Lord
Stannis would not think to come to him, so the maester resigned himself to the ordeal. He had Pylos to
help him, at the least, and for that he was grateful.
Shuffling along the gallery, they passed before a row of tall arched windows with commanding views of
the outer bailey, the curtain wall, and the fishing village beyond. in the yard, archers were firing at practice
butts to the call of "Notch, draw, loose." Their arrows made a sound like a flock of birds taking wing.
Guardsmen strode the wallwalks, peering between the gargoyles on the host camped without. The
morning air was hazy with the smoke of cookfires, as three thousand men sat down to break their fasts
beneath the banners of their lords. Past the sprawl of the camp, the anchorage was crowded with ships.
No craft that had come within sight of Dragonstone this past half year had been allowed to leave again.
Lord Stannis's Fury, a triple-decked war galley of three hundred oars, looked almost small beside some
of the big-bellied carracks and cogs that surrounded her.
The guardsmen outside the Stone Drum knew the maesters by sight, and passed them through. "Wait
here," Cressen told Pylos, within. "It's best I see him alone."
"It is a long climb, Maester."
Cressen smiled. "You think I have forgotten? I have climbed these steps so often I know each one by
name."
Halfway up, he regretted his decision. He had stopped to catch his breath and ease the pain in his hip
when he heard the scuff of boots on stone, and came face-to-face with Ser Davos Seaworth,
descending.
Davos was a slight man, his low birth written plain upon a common face. A well-worn green cloak,
stained by salt and spray and faded from the sun, draped his thin shoulders, over brown doublet and
breeches that matched brown eyes and hair. About his neck a pouch of worn leather hung from a thong.
His small beard was well peppered with grey, and he
wore a leather glove on his maimed left hand. When he saw Cressen, he checked his descent.
"Ser Davos," the maester said. "When did you return?"
"In the black of morning. My favorite time." It was said that no one had ever handled a ship by night half
so well as Davos Shorthand. Before Lord Stannis had knighted him, he had been the most notorious and
elusive smuggler in all the Seven Kingdoms.
"And?"
The man shook his head. "It is as you warned him. They will not rise, Maester. Not for him. They do not
love him."
No, Cressen thought. Nor will they ever. He is strong, able, just . . . aye, just past the point of wisdom .
. . yet it is not enough. It has never been enough. "You spoke to them all?"


"All? No. Only those that would see me. They do not love me either, these highborns. To them I'll
always be the Onion Knight." His left hand closed, stubby fingers locking into a fist; Stannis had hacked
the ends off at the last joint, all but the thumb. "I broke bread with Gulian Swann and old Penrose, and
the Tarths consented to a midnight meeting in a grove. The others-well, Beric Dondarrion is gone missing,
some say dead, and Lord Caron is with Renly. Bryce the Orange, of the Rainbow Guard."
"The Rainbow Guard?"
"Renly's made his own Kingsguard," the onetime smuggler explained, "but these seven don't wear white.
Each one has his own color. Loras Tyrell's their Lord Commander."
It was just the sort of notion that would appeal to Renly Baratheon; a splendid new order of knighthood,
with gorgeous new raiment to proclaim it. Even as a boy, Renly had loved bright colors and rich fabrics,
and he had loved his games as well. "Look at me!" he would shout as he ran laughing through the halls of
Storm's End. "Look at me, I'm a dragon," or "Look at me, I'm a wizard," or "Look at me, look at me,
I'm the rain god."
The bold little boy with wild black hair and laughing eyes was a man grown now, one-and-twenty, and
still he played his games. Look at me, I'm a king, Cressen thought sadly. Oh, Renly, Renly, dear sweet
child, do you know what you are doing~ And would you care if you did? is there anyone who cares for
him but me~ "What reasons did the lords give for their refusals?" he asked Ser Davos.
"Well, as to that, some gave me soft words and some blunt, some made excuses, some promises, some
only lied." He shrugged. "In the end words are just wind."
"You could bring him no hope?"
"Only the false sort, and I'd not do that," Davos said. "He had the truth from me."
Maester Cressen remembered the day Davos had been knighted, after the siege of Storm's End. Lord
Stannis and a small garrison had held the castle for close to a year, against the great host of the Lords
Tyrell and Redwyne. Even the sea was closed against them, watched day and night by Redwyne galleys
flying the burgundy banners of the Arbor. Within Storm's End, the horses had long since been eaten, the
dogs and cats were gone, and the garrison was down to roots and rats. Then came a night when the
moon was new and black clouds hid the stars. Cloaked in that darkness, Davos the smuggler had dared
the Redwyne cordon and the rocks of Shipbreaker Bay alike. His little ship had a black hull, black sails,
black oars, and a hold crammed with onions and salt fish. Little enough, yet it had kept the garrison alive
long enough for Eddard Stark to reach Storm's End and break the siege.
Lord Stannis had rewarded Davos with choice lands on Cape Wrath, a small keep, and a knight's
honors . . . but he had also decreed that he lose a joint of each finger on his left hand, to pay for all his
years of smuggling. Davos had submitted, on the condition that Stannis wield the knife himself; he would
accept no punishment from lesser hands. The lord had used a butcher's cleaver, the better to cut clean
and true. Afterward, Davos had chosen the name Seaworth for his new-made house, and he took for his
banner a black ship on a pale grey field-with an onion on its sails. The onetime smuggler was fond of
saying that Lord Stannis had done him a boon, by giving him four less fingernails to clean and trim.
No, Cressen thought, a man like that would give no false hope, nor soften a hard truth. "Ser Davos, truth
can be a bitter draught, even for a man like Lord Stannis. He thinks only of returning to King's Landing in
the fullness of his power, to tear down his enemies and claim what is rightfully his. Yet now . . ."


"if he takes this meager host to King's Landing, it will be only to die. He does not have the numbers. I
told him as much, but you know his pride." Davos held up his gloved hand. "My fingers will grow back
before that man bends to sense."
The old man sighed. "You have done all you could. Now I must add my voice to yours." Wearily, he
resumed his climb.
Lord Stannis Baratheon's refuge was a great round room with walls of bare black stone and four tall
narrow windows that looked out to the four points of the compass. In the center of the chamber was the
great table from which it took its name, a massive slab of carved wood fashioned at the command of
Aegon Targaryen in the days before the Conquest.
The Painted Table was more than fifty feet long, perhaps half that wide at its widest point, but less
than four feet across at its narrowest. Aegon's carpenters had shaped it after the land of Westeros,
sawing out each bay and peninsula until the table nowhere ran straight. On its surface, darkened by near
three hundred years of varnish, were painted the Seven Kingdoms as they had been in Aegon's day;
rivers and mountains, castles and cities, lakes and forests.
There was a single chair in the room, carefully positioned in the precise place that Dragonstone occupied
off the coast of Westeros, and raised up to give a good view of the tabletop. Seated in the chair was a
man in a tight-laced leather jerkin and breeches of roughspun brown wool. When Maester Cressen
entered, he glanced up. "I knew you would come, old man, whether I summoned you or no." There was
no hint of warmth in his voice; there seldom was.
Stannis Baratheon, Lord of Dragonstone and by the grace of the gods rightful heir to the Iron Throne of
the Seven Kingdoms of Westeros, was broad of shoulder and sinewy of limb, with a tightness to his face
and flesh that spoke of leather cured in the sun until it was as tough as steel. Hard was the word men
used when they spoke of Stannis, and hard he was. Though he was not yet five-and-thirty, only a fringe
of thin black hair remained on his head, circling behind his ears like the shadow of a crown. His brother,
the late King Robert, had grown a beard in his final years. Maester Cressen had never seen it, but they
said it was a wild thing, thick and flerce. As if in answer, Stannis kept his own whiskers cropped tight and
short. They lay like a blue-black shadow across his square jaw and the bony hollows of his cheeks. His
eyes were open wounds beneath his heavy brows, a blue as dark as the sea by night. His mouth would
have given despair to even the drollest of fools; it was a mouth made for frowns and scowls and sharply
worded commands, all thin pale lips and clenched muscles, a mouth that had forgotten how to smile and
had never known how to laugh. Sometimes when the world grew very still and silent of a night, Maester
Cressen fancied he could hear Lord Stannis grinding his teeth half a castle away.
"Once you would have woken me," the old man said.
"Once you were young. Now you are old and sick, and need your sleep." Stannis had never learned to
soften his speech, to dissemble or flatter; he said what he thought, and those that did not like it could be
damned. "I knew you'd learn what Davos had to say soon enough. You always do, don't you?"
"I would be of no help to you if I did not," Cressen said. "I met Davos on the stair."
"And he told all, I suppose? I should have had the man's tongue shortened along with his fingers."
"He would have made you a poor envoy then."
"He made me a poor envoy in any case. The storm lords will not rise for me. It seems they do not like


me, and the justice of my cause means nothing to them. The cravenly ones will sit behind their walls
waiting to see how the wind rises and who is likely to triumph. The bold ones have already declared for
Renly. For R enly! " He spat out the name like poison on his tongue.
"Your brother has been the Lord of Storm's End these past thirteen years. These lords are his sworn
bannermen-"
"His, " Stannis broke in, "when by rights they should be mine. I never asked for Dragonstone. I never
wanted it. I took it because Robert's enemies were here and he commanded me to root them out. I built
his fleet and did his work, dutiful as a younger brother should be to an elder, as Renly should be to me.
And what was Robert's thanks? He names me Lord of Dragonstone, and gives Storm's End and its
incomes to Renly. Storm's End belonged to House Baratheon for three hundred years; by rights it should
have passed to me when Robert took the Iron Throne."
It was an old grievance, deeply felt, and never more so than now. Here was the heart of his lord's
weakness; for Dragonstone, old and strong though it was, commanded the allegiance of only a handful of
lesser lords, whose stony island holdings were too thinly peopled to yield up the men that Stannis needed.
Even with the sellswords he had brought across the narrow sea from the Free Cities of Myr and Lys, the
host camped outside his walls was far too small to bring down the power of House Lannister.
"Robert did you an injustice," Maester Cressen replied carefully, "yet he had sound reasons.
Dragonstone had long been the seat of House Targaryen. He needed a man's strength to rule here, and
Renly was but a child."
"He is a child still," Stannis declared, his anger ringing loud in the empty hall, "a thieving child who thinks
to snatch the crown off my brow. What has Renly ever done to earn a throne? He sits in council and jests
with Littlefinger, and at tourneys he dons his splendid suit of armor and allows himself to be knocked off
his horse by a better man. That is the sum of my brother Renly, who thinks he ought to be a king. I ask
you, why did the gods inflict me with brothers?"
"I cannot answer for the gods."
"You seldom answer at all these days, it seems to me. Who maesters for Renly? Perchance I should
send for him, I might like his counsel better. What do you think this maester said when my brother
decided to steal my crown? What counsel did your colleague offer to this traitor blood of mine?"
"It would surprise me if Lord Renly sought counsel, Your Grace." The
youngest of Lord Steffon's three sons had grown into a man bold but heedless, who acted from impulse
rather than calculation. In that, as in so much else, Renly was like his brother Robert, and utterly unlike
Stannis.
"Your Grace," Stannis repeated bitterly. "You mock me with a king's style, yet what am I king of?
Dragonstone and a few rocks in the narrow sea, there is my kingdom." He descended the steps of his
chair to stand before the table, his shadow falling across the mouth of the Blackwater Rush and the
painted forest where King's Landing now stood. There he stood, brooding over the realm he sought to
claim, so near at hand and yet so far away. "Tonight I am to sup with my lords bannermen, such as they
are. Celtigar, Velaryon, Bar Emmon, the whole paltry lot of them. A poor crop, if truth be told, but they
are what my brothers have left me. That Lysene pirate Salladhor Saan will be there with the latest tally of
what I owe him, and Morosh the Myrman will caution me with talk of tides and autumn gales, while Lord
Sunglass mutters piously of the will of the Seven. Celtigar will want to know which storm lords are joining


us. Velaryon will threaten to take his levies home unless we strike at once. What am I to tell them? What
must I do now?"
"Your true enemies are the Lannisters, my lord," Maester Cressen answered. "If you and your brother
were to make common cause against them-"
"I will not treat with Renly," Stannis answered in a tone that brooked no argument. "Not while he calls
himself a king."
"Not Renly, then," the maester yielded. His lord was stubborn and proud; when he had set his mind,
there was no changing it. "Others might serve your needs as well. Eddard Stark's son has been
proclaimed King in the North, with all the power of Winterfell and Riverrun behind him."
"A green boy," said Stannis, "and another false king. Am I to accept a broken realm?"
"Surely half a kingdom is better than none," Cressen said, "and if you help the boy avenge his father's
murder-"
"Why should I avenge Eddard Stark? The man was nothing to me. Oh, Robert loved him, to be sure.
Loved him as a brother, how often did I hear that? I was his brother, not Ned Stark, but you would
never have known it by the way he treated me. I held Storm's End for him, watching good men starve
while Mace Tyrell and Paxter Redwyne feasted within sight of my walls. Did Robert thank me? No. He
thanked Stark, for lifting the siege when we were down to rats and radishes. I built a fleet at Robert's
command, took Dragonstone in his name. Did he take my hand and say, Well done, brother, whatever
should I do without you? No, he blamed me for letting Willem Darry steal away Viserys and the babe, as
if I could have stopped it. I sat on his council for fifteen years, helping Jon Arryn rule his realm while
Robert drank and whored, but when Jon died, did my brother name me his Hand? No, he went galloping
off to his dear friend Ned Stark, and offered him the honor. And small good it did either of them. "
"Be that as it may, my lord," Maester Cressen said gently. "Great wrongs have been done you, but the
past is dust. The future may yet be won if you join with the Starks. There are others you might sound out
as well. What of Lady Arryn? If the queen murdered her husband, surely she will want justice for him.
She has a young son, Jon Arryn's heir. If you were to betroth Shireen to him-"
"The boy is weak and sickly," Lord Stannis objected. "Even his father saw how it was, when he asked
me to foster him on Dragonstone. Service as a page might have done him good, but that damnable
Lannister woman had Lord Arryn poisoned before it could be done, and now Lysa hides him in the
Eyrie. She'll never part with the boy, I promise you that. "
"Then you must send Shireen to the Eyrie," the maester ' urged. "Dragonstone is a grim home for a child.
Let her fool go with her, so she will have a familiar face about her."
"Familiar and hideous." Stannis furrowed his brow in thought. "Still . . . perhaps it is worth the trying . . .
"Must the rightful Lord of the Seven Kingdoms beg for help from widow women and usurpers?" a
woman's voice asked sharply.
Maester Cressen turned ' and bowed his head. "My lady," he said, chagrined that he had not heard her
enter.


Lord Stannis scowled. "I do not beg. Of anyone. Mind you remember that, woman."
"I am pleased to hear it, my lord." Lady Selyse was as tall as her husband, thin of body and thin of face,
with prominent ears, a sharp nose, and the faintest hint of a mustache on her upper lip. She plucked it
daily and cursed it regularly, yet it never failed to return. Her eyes were pale, her mouth stern, her voice a
whip. She cracked it now. "Lady Arryn owes you her allegiance, as do the Starks, your brother Renly,
and all the rest. You are their one true king. It would not be fitting to plead and bargain with them for
what is rightfully yours by the grace of god."
God, she said, not gods. The red woman had won her, heart and soul, turning her from the gods of the
Seven Kingdoms, both old and new, to worship the one they called the Lord of Light.
"Your god can keep his grace," said Lord Stannis, who did not share his wife's fervent new faith. "It's
swords I need, not blessings. Do you have an army hidden somewhere that you've not told me of?"
There was' no affection in his tone. Stannis had always been uncomfortable around
women, even his own wife. When he had gone to King's Landing to sit on Robert's council, he had left
Selyse on Dragonstone with their daughter. His letters had been few, his visits fewer; he did his duty in
the marriage bed once or twice a year, but took no joy in it, and the sons he had once hoped for had
never come.
"My brothers and uncles and cousins have armies," she told him. "House Florent will rally to your
banner."
"House Florent can field two thousand swords at best." It was said that Stannis knew the strength of
every house in the Seven Kingdoms. "And you have a deal more faith in your brothers and uncles than I
do, my lady. The Florent lands lie too close to Highgarden for your lord uncle to risk Mace Tyrell's
wrath."
"There is another way." Lady Selyse moved closer. "Look out your windows, my lord. There is the sign
you have waited for, blazoned on the sky. Red, it is, the red of flame, red for the fiery heart of the true
god. it is his banner-and yours! See how it unfurls across the heavens like a dragon's hot breath, and you
the Lord of Dragonstone. It means your time has come, Your Grace. Nothing is more certain. You are
meant to sail from this desolate rock as Aegon the Conqueror once sailed, to sweep all before you as he
did. only say the word, and embrace the power of the Lord of Light."
"How many swords will the Lord of Light put into my hand?" Stannis demanded again.
"All you need," his wife promised, "The swords of Storm's End and Highgarden for a start, and all their
lords bannermen."
"Davos would tell you different," Stannis said. "Those swords are sworn to Renly. They love my
charming young brother, as they once loved Robert . . . and as they have never loved me."
"Yes," she answered, "but if Renly should die . . ."
Stannis looked at his lady with narrowed eyes, until Cressen could not hold his tongue. "it is not to be
thought. Your Grace, whatever follies Renly has committed-"
"Follies? I call them treasons." Stannis turned back to his wife. "My brother is young and strong, and he
has a vast host around him, and these rainbow knights of his."


"Melisandre has gazed into the flames, and seen him dead."
Cressen was horrorstruck. "Fratricide . . . my lord, this is evil, unthinkable . . . please, listen to me."
Lady Selyse gave him a measured look. "And what will you tell him, Maester? How he might win half a
kingdom if he goes to the Starks on his knees and sells our daughter to Lysa Arryn?"
"I have heard your counsel, Cressen," Lord Stannis said. "Now I will hear hers. You are dismissed."
Maester Cressen bent a stiff knee. He could feel Lady Selyse's eyes on his back as he shuffled slowly
across the room. By the time he reached the bottom of the steps it was all he could do to stand erect.
"Help me," he said to Pylos.
When he was safe back in his own rooms, Cressen sent the younger man away and limped to his
balcony once more, to stand between his gargoyles and stare out to sea. One of Salladhor Saan's
warships was sweeping past the castle, her gaily striped hull slicing through the greygreen waters as her
oars rose and fell. He watched until she vanished behind a headland. Would that my fears could vanish so
easily. Had he lived so long for this?
When a maester donned his collar, he put aside the hope of children, yet Cressen had oft felt a father
nonetheless. Robert, Stannis, Renly . . . three sons he had raised after the angry sea claimed Lord
Steffon. Had he done so ill that now he must watch one kill the other? He could not allow it, would not
allow it.
The woman was the heart of it. Not the Lady Selyse, the other one. The red woman, the servants had
named her, afraid to speak her name. "I will speak her name," Cressen told his stone hellhound.
"Melisandre. Her." Melisandre of Asshai, sorceress, shadowbinder, and priestess to R'hllor, the Lord of
Light, the Heart of Fire, the God of Flame and Shadow. Melisandre, whose madness must not be
allowed to spread beyond Dragonstone.
His chambers seemed dim and gloomy after the brightness of the morning. With fumbling hands, the old
man lit a candle and carried it to the workroom beneath the rookery stair, where his ointments, potions,
and medicines stood neatly on their shelves. On the bottom shelf behind a row of salves in squat clay jars
he found a vial of indigo glass, no larger than his little finger. It rattled when he shook it. Cressen blew
away a layer of dust and carried it back to his table. Collapsing into his chair, he pulled the stopper and
spilled out the vial's contents. A dozen crystals, no larger than seeds, rattled across the parchment he'd
been reading. They shone like jewels in the candlelight, so purple that the maester found himself thinking
that he had never truly seen the color before.
The chain around his throat felt very heavy. He touched one of the crystals lightly with the tip of his little
finger. Such a small thing to hold the power of life and death. It was made from a certain plant that grew
only on the islands of the Jade Sea, half a world away. The leaves had to be aged, and soaked in a wash
of limes and sugar water and certain rare spices from the Summer Isles. Afterward they could be
discarded, but the potion must be thickened with ash and allowed to crystallize. The process was slow
and difficult, the necessaries costly and hard to acquire. The alchemists of Lys knew the way of it,
though, and the Faceless Men
of Braavos . . . and the maesters of his order as well, though it was not something talked about beyond
the walls of the Citadel. All the world knew that a maester forged his silver link when he learned the art of
healing-but the world preferred to forget that men who knew how to heal also knew how to kill.


Cressen no longer recalled the name the Asshai'i gave the leaf, or the Lysene poisoners the crystal. In
the Citadel, it was simply called the strangler. Dissolved in wine, it would make the muscles of a man's
throat clench tighter than any fist, shutting off his windpipe. They said a victim's face turned as purple as
the little crystal seed from which his death was grown, but so too did a man choking on a morsel of food.
And this very night Lord Stannis would feast his bannermen, his lady wife . . . and the red woman,
Melisandre of Asshai.
I must rest, Maester Cressen told himself. I must have all my strength come dark. My hands must not
shake, nor my courage flag. It is a dreadful thing I do, yet it must be done. If there are gods, surely they
will forgive me. He had slept so poorly of late. A nap would refresh him for the ordeal ahead. Wearily, he
tottered off to his bed. Yet when he closed his eyes, he could still see the light of the comet, red and flery
and vividly alive amidst the darkness of his dreams. Perhaps it is my comet, he thought drowsily at the
last, just before sleep took him. An omen of blood, foretelling murder . . . yes . . .
When he woke it was full dark, his bedchamber was black, and every joint in his body ached. Cressen
pushed himself up, his head throbbing. Clutching for his cane, he rose unsteady to his feet. So late, he
thought. They did not summon me. He was always summoned for feasts, seated near the salt, close to
Lord Stannis. His lord's face swam up before him, not the man he was but the boy he had been, standing
cold in the shadows while the sun shone on his elder brother. Whatever he did, Robert had done first,
and better. Poor boy . . . he must hurry, for his sake.
The maester found the crystals where he had left them, and scooped them off the parchment. Cressen
owned no hollow rings, such as the poisoners of Lys were said to favor, but a myriad of pockets great
and small were sewn inside the loose sleeves of his robe. He secreted the strangler seeds in one of them,
threw open his door, and called, "Pylos? Where are you?" When he heard no reply, he called again,
louder. "Pylos, I need help." Still there came no answer. That was queer; the young maester had his cell
only a half turn down the stair, within easy earshot.
In the end, Cressen had to shout for the servants. "Make haste," he told them. "I have slept too long.
They will be feasting by now . . . drinking . . . I should have been woken." What had happened to
Maester Pylos? Truly, he did not understand.
Again he had to cross the long gallery. A night wind whispered
through the great windows, sharp with the smell of the sea. Torches flickered along the walls of
Dragonstone, and in the camp beyond, he could see hundreds of cookfires burning, as if a field of stars
had fallen to the earth. Above, the comet blazed red and malevolent. I am too old and wise to fear such
things, the maester told himself.
The doors to the Great Hall were set in the mouth of a stone dragon. He told the servants to leave him
outside. It would be better to enter alone; he must not appear feeble. Leaning heavily on his cane,
Cressen climbed the last few steps and hobbled beneath the gateway teeth. A pair of guardsmen opened
the heavy red doors before him, unleashing a sudden blast of noise and light. Cressen stepped down into
the dragon's maw.
over the clatter of knife and plate and the low mutter of table talk, he heard Patchface singing, ". . .
dance, my lord, dance my lord," to the accompaniment of jangling cowbells. The same dreadful song he'd
sung this morning. "The shadows come to stay, my lord, stay my lord, stay my lord. " The lower tables
were crowded with knights, archers, and sellsword captains, tearing apart loaves of black bread to soak


in their fish stew. Here there was no loud laughter, no raucous shouting such as marred the dignity of
other men's feasts; Lord Stannis did not permit such.
Cressen made his way toward the raised platform where the lords sat with the king. He had to step wide
around Patchface. Dancing, his bells ringing, the fool neither saw nor heard his approach. As he hopped
from one leg to the other, Patchface lurched into Cressen, knocking his cane out from under him. They
went crashing down together amidst the rushes in a tangle of arms and legs, while a sudden gale of
laughter went up around them. No doubt it was a comical sight.
Patchface sprawled half on top of him, motley fool's face pressed close to his own. He had lost his tin
helm with its antlers and bells. "Under the sea, you fall up," he declared. "I know, I know, oh, oh, oh. "
Giggling, the fool rolled off, bounded to his feet, and did a little dance.
Trying to make the best of it, the maester smiled feebly and struggled to rise, but his hip was in such pain
that for a moment he was half afraid that he had broken it all over again. He felt strong hands grasp him
under the arms and lift him back to his feet. "Thank you, ser," he murmured, turning to see which knight
had come to his aid . . .
"Maester," said Lady Melisandre, her deep voice flavored with the music of the jade Sea. "You ought
take more care." As ever, she wore red head to heel, a long loose gown of flowing silk as bright as fire,
with dagged sleeves and deep slashes in the bodice that showed glimpses of a darker bloodred fabric
beneath. Around her throat was a red gold choker tighter than any maester's chain, ornamented with a
single great ruby.
Her hair was not the orange or strawberry color of common red-haired men, but a deep burnished
copper that shone in the light of the torches. Even her eyes were red . . . but her skin was smooth and
white, unblemished, pale as cream. Slender she was, graceful, taller than most knights, with full breasts
and narrow waist and a heart-shaped face. Men's eyes that once found her did not quickly look away,
not even a maester's eyes. Many called her beautiful. She was not beautiful. She was red, and terrible,
and red.
"I . . . thank you, my lady."
"A man your age must look to where he steps," Melisandre said courteously. "The night is dark and full
of terrors."
He knew the phrase, some prayer of her faith. It makes no matter, I have a faith of my own. "Only
children fear the dark," he told her. Yet even as he said the words, he heard Patchface take up his song
again. "The shadows come to dance, my lord, dance my lord, dance my lord. "
"Now here is a riddle," Melisandre said. "A clever fool and a foolish wise man." Bending, she picked up
Patchface's helm from where it had fallen and set it on Cressen's head. The cowbells rang softly as the tin
bucket slid down over his ears. "A crown to match your chain, Lord Maester," she announced. All
around them, men were laughing.
Cressen pressed his lips together and fought to still his rage. She thought he was feeble and helpless, but
she would learn otherwise before the night was done. Old he might be, yet he was still a maester of the
Citadel. "I need no crown but truth," he told her, removing the fool's helm from his head.
"There are truths in this world that are not taught at Oldtown." Melisandre turned from him in a swirl of
red silk and made her way back to the high table, where King Stannis and his queen were seated.


Cressen handed the antlered tin bucket back to Patchface, and made to follow.
Maester Pylos sat in his place.
The old man could only stop and stare. "Maester Pylos," he said at last. "You . . . you did not wake me."
"His Grace commanded me to let you rest." Pylos had at least the grace to blush. "He told me you were
not needed here."
Cressen looked over the knights and captains and lords sitting silent. Lord Celtigar, aged and sour, wore
a mantle patterned with red crabs picked out in garnets. Handsome Lord Velaryon chose sea-green silk,
the white gold seahorse at his throat matching his long fair hair. Lord Bar Emmon, that plump boy of
fourteen, was swathed in purple velvet trimmed with white seal, Ser Axell Florent remained homely even
in russet and fox fur, pious Lord Sunglass wore moonstones at throat and wrist and finger, and the
Lysene captain Salladhor Saan was a sunburst of scarlet satin, gold, and jewels. Only Ser Davos dressed
simply, in brown
doublet and green wool mantle, and only Ser Davos met his gaze, with pity in his eyes.
"You are too ill and too confused to be of use to me, old man." It sounded so like Lord Stannis's voice,
but it could not be, it could not. "Pylos will counsel me henceforth. Already he works with the ravens,
since you can no longer climb to the rookery. I will not have you kill yourself in my service."
Maester Cressen blinked. Stannis, my lord, my sad sullen boy, son I never had, you must not do this,
don't you know how I have cared for you, lived for you, loved you despite all? Yes, loved you, better
than Robert even, or Renly, for you were the one unloved, the one who needed me most. Yet all he said
was, "As you command, my lord, but . . . but I am hungry. Might not I have a place at your table?" At
your side, I belong at your side . . .
Ser Davos rose from the bench. "I should be honored if the maester would sit here beside me, Your
Grace."
"As you will." Lord Stannis turned away to say something to Melisandre, who had seated herself at his
right hand, in the place of high honor. Lady Selyse was on his left, flashing a smile as bright and brittle as
her jewels.
Too far, Cressen thought dully, looking at where Ser Davos was seated. Half of the lords bannermen
were between the smuggler and the high table. I must be closer to her if I am to get the strangler into her
cup, yet how?
Patchface was capering about as the maester made his slow way around the table to Davos Seaworth.
"Here we eat fish," the fool declared happily, waving a cod about like a scepter. "Under the sea, the fish
eat us. I know, I know, oh, oh, oh."
Ser Davos moved aside to make room on the bench. "We all should be in motley tonight," he said
gloomily as Cressen seated himself, "for this is fool's business we're about. The red woman has seen
victory in her flames, so Stannis means to press his claim, no matter what the numbers. Before she's done
we're all like to see what Patchface saw, I fearthe bottom of the sea."
Cressen slid his hands up into his sleeves as if for warmth. His fingers found the hard lumps the crystals
made in the wool. "Lord Stannis."


Stannis turned from the red woman, but it was Lady Selyse who replied. "King Stannis. You forget
yourself, Maester."
"He is old, his mind wanders," the king told her gruffly. "What is it, Cressen? Speak your mind."
"As you intend to sail, it is vital that you make common cause with Lord Stark and Lady Arryn . . .
"I make common cause with no one," Stannis Baratheon said.
"No more than light makes common cause with darkness." Lady Selyse took his hand.
Stannis nodded. "The Starks seek to steal half my kingdom, even as the Lannisters have stolen my
throne and my own sweet brother the swords and service and strongholds that are mine by rights. They
are all usurpers, and they are all my enemies."
I have lost him, Cressen thought, despairing. If only he could somehow approach Melisandre unseen . . .
he needed but an instant's access to her cup. "You are the rightful heir to your brother Robert, the true
Lord of the Seven Kingdoms, and King of the Andals, the Rhoynar, and the First Men," he said
desperately, "but even so, you cannot hope to triumph without allies."
"He has an ally," Lady Selyse said. "WhIlor, the Lord of Light, the Heart of Fire, the God of Flame and
Shadow."
"Gods make uncertain allies at best," the old man insisted, "and that one has no power here."
"You think not?" The ruby at Melisandre's throat caught the light as she turned her head, and for an
instant it seemed to glow bright as the comet. "If you will speak such folly, Maester, you ought to wear
your crown again."
"Yes," Lady Selyse agreed. "Patches's helm. It suits you well, old man. Put it on again, I command you."
"Under the sea, no one wears hats," Patchface said. "I know, I know, oh, oh, oh."
Lord Stannis's eyes were shadowed beneath his heavy brow, his mouth tight as his jaw worked silently.
He always ground his teeth when he was angry. "Fool," he growled at last, "my lady wife commands.
Give Cressen your helm."
No, the old maester thought, this is not you, not your way, you were always just, always hard yet never
cruel, never, you did not understand mockery, no more than you understood laughter.
Patchface danced closer, his cowbells ringing, clang-a-lang, ding-ding, clink-clank-clink-clank. The
maester sat silent while the fool set the antlered bucket on his brow. Cressen bowed his head beneath the
weight. His bells clanged. "Perhaps he ought sing his counsel henceforth," Lady Selyse said.
"You go too far, woman," Lord Stannis said. "He is an old man, and he's served me well."
And I will serve you to the last, my sweet lord, my poor lonely son, Cressen thought, for suddenly he
saw the way. Ser Davos's cup was before him, still half-full of sour red. He found a hard flake of crystal
in his sleeve, held it tight between thumb and forefinger as he reached for the cup. Smooth motions, deft,
I must not fumble now, he prayed, and


the gods were kind. In the blink of an eye, his fingers were empty. His hands had not been so steady for
years, nor half so fluid. Davos saw, but no one else, he was certain. Cup in hand, he rose to his feet.
"Mayhaps I have been a fool. Lady Melisandre, will you share a cup of wine with me? A cup in honor of
your god, your Lord of Light? A cup to toast his power? "
The red woman studied him. "If you wish."
He could feel them all watching him. Davos clutched at him as he left the bench, catching his sleeve with
the fingers that Lord Stannis had shortened. "What are you doing?" he whispered.
"A thing that must be done," Maester Cressen answered, "for the sake of the realm, and the soul of my
lord." He shook off Davos's hand, spilling a drop of wine on the rushes.
She met him beneath the high table with every man's eyes upon them. But Cressen saw only her. Red
silk, red eyes, the ruby red at her throat, red lips curled in a faint smile as she put her hand atop his own,
around the cup. Her skin felt hot, feverish. "It is not too late to spill the wine, Maester."
"No," he whispered hoarsely. "No."
"As you will." Melisandre of Asshai took the cup from his hands and drank long and deep. There was
only half a swallow of wine remaining when she offered it back to him. "And now you."
His hands were shaking, but he made himself be strong. A maester of the Citadel must not be afraid. The
wine was sour on his tongue. He let the empty cup drop from his fingers to shatter on the floor. "He does
have power here, my lord," the woman said. "And fire cleanses." At her throat, the ruby shimmered
redly.
Cressen tried to reply, but his words caught in his throat. His cough became a terrible thin whistle as he
strained to suck in air. Iron fingers tightened round his neck. As he sank to his knees, still he shook his
head, denying her, denying her power, denying her magic, denying her god. And the cowbells peeled in
his antlers, singing fool, fool, fool while the red woman looked down on him in pity, the candle flames
dancing in her red red eyes.
CHAPTER 1
ARYA
At Winterfell they had called her "Arya Horseface" and she'd thought nothing could be worse, but that
was before the orphan boy Lommy Greenhands had named her "Lumpyhead."
Her head felt lumpy when she touched it. When Yoren had dragged her into that alley she'd thought he
meant to kill her, but the sour old man had only held her tight, sawing through her mats and tangles with
his dagger. She remembered how the breeze sent the fistfuls of dirty brown hair skittering across the
paving stones, toward the sept where her father had died. "I'm taking men and boys from the city," Yoren
growled as the sharp steel scraped at her head. "Now you hold still, boy." By the time he had finished,
her scalp was nothing but tufts and stubble.


Afterward he told her that from there to Winterfell she'd be Arry the orphan boy. "Gate shouldn't be
hard, but the road's another matter. You got a long way to go in bad company. I got thirty this time, men
and boys all bound for the Wall, and don't be thinking they're like that bastard brother o' yours." He
shook her. "Lord Eddard gave me pick o' the dungeons, and I didn't find no little lordlings down there.
This lot, half o' them would turn you over to the queen quick as spit for a pardon and maybe a few
silvers. The other half'd do the same, only they'd rape you first. So you keep to yourself and make your
water in the woods, alone. That'll be the hardest part, the pissing, so don't drink no more'n you need."
Leaving King's Landing was easy, just like he'd said. The Lannister
guardsmen on the gate were stopping everyone, but Yoren called one by name and their wagons were
waved through. No one spared Arya a glance. They were looking for a highborn girl, daughter of the
King's Hand, not for a skinny boy with his hair chopped off. Arya never looked back. She wished the
Rush would rise and wash the whole city away, Flea Bottom and the Red Keep and the Great Sept and
everything, and everyone too, especially Prince Joffrey and his mother. But she knew it wouldn't, and
anyhow Sansa was still in the city and would wash away too. When she remembered that, Arya decided
to wish for Winterfell instead.
Yoren was wrong about the pissing, though. That wasn't the hardest part at all; Lommy Greenhands and
Hot Pie were the hardest part. Orphan boys. Yoren had plucked some from the streets with promises of
food for their bellies and shoes for their feet. The rest he'd found in chains. "The Watch needs good
men," he told them as they set out, "but you lot will have to do."
Yoren had taken grown men from the dungeons as well, thieves and poachers and rapers and the like.
The worst were the three he'd found in the black cells who must have scared even him, because he kept
them fettered hand and foot in the back of a wagon, and vowed they'd stay in irons all the way to the
Wall. One had no nose, only the hole in his face where it had been cut off, and the gross fat bald one with
the pointed teeth and the weeping sores on his cheeks had eyes like nothing human.
They took five wagons out of King's Landing, laden with supplies for the Wall: hides and bolts of cloth,
bars of pig iron, a cage of ravens, books and paper and ink, a bale of sourleaf, jars of oil, and chests of
medicine and spices. Teams of plow horses pulled the wagons, and Yoren had bought two coursers and
a half-dozen donkeys for the boys. Arya would have preferred a real horse, but the donkey was better
than riding on a wagon.
The men paid her no mind, but she was not so lucky with the boys. She was two years younger than the
youngest orphan, not to mention smaller and skinnier, and Lommy and Hot Pie took her silence to mean
she was scared, or stupid, or deaf. "Look at that sword Lumpyhead's got there," Lommy said one
morning as they made their plodding way past orchards and wheat fields. He'd been a dyer's apprentice
before he was caught stealing, and his arms were mottled green to the elbow. When he laughed he
brayed like the donkeys they were riding. "Where's a gutter rat like Lumpyhead get him a sword?"
Arya chewed her lip sullenly. She could see the back of Yoren's faded black cloak up ahead of the
wagons, but she was determined not to go crying to him for help.
"Maybe he's a little squire," Hot Pie put in. His mother had been a
baker before she died, and he'd pushed her cart through the streets all day, shouting "Hot pies! Hot
pies!" "Some lordy lord's little squire boy, that's it."


"He ain't no squire, look at him. I bet that's not even a real sword. I bet it's just some play sword made
of tin."
Arya hated them making fun of Needle. "It's castle-forged steel, you stupid," she snapped, turning in the
saddle to glare at them, "and you better shut your mouth."
The orphan boys hooted. "Where'd you get a blade like that, Lumpyface?" Hot Pie wanted to know.
"Lumpyhead," corrected Lommy. "He prob'ly stole it."
"I did not!" she shouted. Jon Snow had given her Needle. Maybe she had to let them call her
Lumpyhead, but she wasn't going to let them call Jon a thief.
"If he stole it, we could take it off him," said Hot Pie. "It's not his anyhow. I could use me a sword like
that."
Lommy egged him on. "Go on, take it off him, I dare you."
Hot Pie kicked his donkey, riding closer. "Hey, Lumpyface, you gimme that sword." His hair was the
color of straw, his fat face all sunburnt and peeling. "You don't know how to use it."
Yes I do, Arya could have said. I killed a boy, a fat boy like you, I stabbed him in the belly and he died,
and I'll kill you too if you don't let me alone. Only she did not dare. Yoren didn't know about the
stableboy, but she was afraid of what he might do if he found out. Arya was pretty sure that some of the
other men were killers too, the three in the manacles for sure, but the queen wasn't looking for them, so it
wasn't the same.
"Look at him," brayed Lommy Greenhands. "I bet he's going to cry now. You want to cry,
Lumpyhead?"
She had cried in her sleep the night before, dreaming of her father. Come morning, she'd woken
red-eyed and dry, and could not have shed another tear if her life had hung on it.
"He's going to wet his pants," Hot Pie suggested.
"Leave him be," said the boy with the shaggy black hair who rode behind them. Lommy had named him
the Bull, on account of this horned helm he had that he polished all the time but never wore. Lommy
didn't dare mock the Bull. He was older, and big for his age, with a broad chest and strong-looking arms.
"You better give Hot Pie the sword, Arry," Lommy said. "Hot Pie wants it bad. He kicked a boy to
death. He'll do the same to you, I bet."
"I knocked him down and I kicked him in the balls, and I kept kicking him there until he was dead," Hot
Pie boasted. "I kicked him all to
pieces. His balls were broke open and bloody and his cock turned black. You better gimme the sword."
Arya slid her practice sword from her belt. "You can have this one," she told Hot Pie, not wanting to
fight.
"That's just some stick." He rode nearer and tried to reach over for Needle's hilt.


Arya made the stick whistle as she laid the wood across his donkey's hindquarters. The animal hawed
and bucked, dumping Hot Pie on the ground. She vaulted off her own donkey and poked him in the gut
as he tried to get up and he sat back down with a grunt. Then she whacked him across the face and his
nose made a crack like a branch breaking. Blood dribbled from his nostrils. When Hot Pie began to wail,
Arya whirled toward Lommy Greenhands, who was sitting on his donkey openmouthed. "You want
some sword too?" she yelled, but he didn't. He raised dyed green hands in front of his face and squealed
at her to get away.
The Bull shouted, "Behind you," and Arya spun. Hot Pie was on his knees, his fist closing around a big
jagged rock. She let him throw it, ducking her head as it sailed past. Then she flew at him. He raised a
hand and she hit it, and then his cheek, and then his knee. He grabbed for her, and she danced aside and
bounced the wood off the back of his head. He fell down and got up and stumbled after her, his red face
all smeared with dirt and blood. Arya slid into a water dancer's stance and waited. When he came close
enough, she lunged, right between his legs, so hard that if her wooden sword had had a point it would
have come out between his butt cheeks.
By the time Yoren pulled her off him, Hot Pie was sprawled out on the ground with his breeches brown
and smelly, crying as Arya whapped him over and over and over. "Enough," the black brother roared,
prying the stick sword from her fingers, "you want to kill the fool?" When Lommy and some others
started to squeal, the old man turned on them too. "Shut your mouths, or I'll be shutting them for you.
Any more o' this, I'll tie you lot behind the wagons and drag you to the Wall." He spat. "And that goes
twice for you, Arry. You come with me, boy. Now"
They were all looking at her, even the three chained and manacled in the back of the wagon. The fat one
snapped his pointy teeth together and hissed, but Arya ignored him.
The old man dragged her well off the road into a tangle of trees, cursing and muttering all the while. "If I
had a thimble o' sense, I would've left you in King's Landing. You hear me, boy?" He always snarled that
word, putting a bite in it so she would be certain to hear. "Unlace your breeches and pull 'em down. Go
on, there's no one here to see. Do it."
Sullenly, Arya did as he said. "Over there, against the oak. Yes, like that." She wrapped her arms
around the trunk and pressed her face to the rough wood. "You scream now. You scream loud."
I won't, Arya thought stubbornly, but when Yoren laid the wood against the back of her bare thighs, the
shriek burst out of her anyway. "Think that hurt?" he said. "Try this one." The stick came whistling. Arya
shrieked again, clutching the tree to keep from falling. "One more." She held on tight, chewing her lip,
flinching when she heard it coming. The stroke made her jump and howl. I won't cry, she thought, I won't
do that. I'm a Stark of Winterfell, our sigil is the direwolf, direwolves don't cry. She could feel a thin
trickle of blood running down her left leg. Her thighs and cheeks were ablaze with pain. "Might be I got
your attention now," Yoren said. "Next time you take that stick to one of your brothers, you'll get twice
what you give, you hear me? Now cover yourself."
They're not my brothers, Arya thought as she bent to yank up her breeches, but she knew better than to
say so. Her hands fumbled with her belt and laces.
Yoren was looking at her. "You hurt?"
Calm as still water, she told herself, the way Syrio Forel had taught her. "Some."


He spat. "That pie boy's hurting worse. It wasn't him as killed your father, girl, nor that thieving Lommy
neither. Hitting them won't bring him back."
"I know," Arya muttered sullenly.
"Here's something you don't know. It wasn't supposed to happen like it did. I was set to leave, wagons
bought and loaded, and a man comes with a boy for me, and a purse of coin, and a message, never mind
who it's from. Lord Eddard's to take the black, he says to me, wait, he'll be going with you. Why d'you
think I was there? Only something went queer."
"loffrey," Arya breathed. "Someone should kill him!"
"Someone will, but it won't be me, nor you neither." Yoren tossed back her stick sword. "Got sourleaf
back at the wagons," he said as they made their way back to the road. "You'll chew some, it'll help with
the sting."
It did help, some, though the taste of it was foul and it made her spit look like blood. Even so, she
walked for the rest of that day, and the day after, and the day after that, too raw to sit a donkey. Hot Pie
was worse off; Yoren had to shift some barrels around so he could lie in the back of a wagon on some
sacks of barley, and he whimpered every time the wheels hit a rock. Lommy Greenhands wasn't even
hurt, yet he stayed as far away from Arya as he could get. "Every time you look at him, he
twitches," the Bull told her as she walked beside his donkey. She did not answer. It seemed safer not to
talk to anyone.
That night she lay upon her thin blanket on the hard ground, staring up at the great red comet. The comet
was splendid and scary all at once. "The Red Sword," the Bull named it; he claimed it looked like a
sword, the blade still red-hot from the forge. When Arya squinted the right way she could see the sword
too, only it wasn't a new sword, it was Ice, her father's greatsword, all ripply Valyrian steel, and the red
was Lord Eddard's blood on the blade after Ser Ilyn the King's justice had cut off his head. Yoren had
made her look away when it happened, yet it seemed to her that the comet looked like Ice must have,
after.
When at last she slept, she dreamed of home. The kingsroad wound its way past Winterfell on its way to
the Wall, and Yoren had promised he'd leave her there with no one any wiser about who she'd been. She
yearned to see her mother again, and Robb and Bran and Rickon . . . but it was Jon Snow she thought of
most. She wished somehow they could come to the Wall before Winterfell, so Jon might muss up her hair
and call her "little sister." She'd tell him, "I missed you," and he'd say it too at the very same moment, the
way they always used to say things together. She would have liked that. She would have liked that better
than anything.
CHAPTER 2
SANSA
The morning of King Joffrey's name day dawned bright and windy, with the long tail of the great comet
visible through the high scuttling clouds. Sansa was watching it from her tower window when Ser Arys


Oakheart arrived to escort her down to the tourney grounds. "What do you think it means?" she asked
him.
"Glory to your betrothed," Ser Arys answered at once. "See how it flames across the sky today on His
Grace's name day, as if the gods themselves had raised a banner in his honor. The smallfolk have named
it King Joffrey's Comet."
Doubtless that was what they told Joffrey; Sansa was not so sure. "I've heard servants calling it the
Dragon's Tail."
"King Joffrey sits where Aegon the Dragon once sat, in the castle built by his son," Ser Arys said. "He is
the dragon's heir-and crimson is the color of House Lannister, another sign. This comet is sent to herald
Joffrey's ascent to the throne, I have no doubt. It means that he will triumph over his enemies."
Is it true? she wondered. Would the gods be so cruel? Her mother was one of Joffrey's enemies now,
her brother Robb another. Her father had died by the king's command. Must Robb and her lady mother
die next? The comet was red, but Joffrey was Baratheon as much as Lannister, and their sigil was a black
stag on a golden field. Shouldn't the gods have sent Joff a golden comet?
Sansa closed the shutters and turned sharply away from the window. "You look very lovely today, my
lady," Ser Arys said.
"Thank you, ser." Knowing that Joffrey would require her to attend the tourney in his honor, Sansa had
taken special care with her face and clothes. She wore a gown of pale purple silk and a moonstone hair
net that had been a gift from Joffrey. The gown had long sleeves to hide the bruises on her arms. Those
were Joffrey's gifts as well. When they told him that Robb had been proclaimed King in the North, his
rage had been a fearsome thing, and he had sent Ser Boros to beat her.
"Shall we go?" Ser Arys offered his arm and she let him lead her from her chamber. If she must have one
of the Kingsguard dogging her steps, Sansa preferred that it be him. Ser Boros was short-tempered, Ser
Meryn cold, and Ser Mandon's strange dead eyes made her uneasy, while Ser Preston treated her like a
lackwit child. Arys Oakheart was courteous, and would talk to her cordially. Once he even objected
when Joffrey commanded him to hit her. He did hit her in the end, but not hard as Ser Meryn or Ser
Boros might have, and at least he had argued. The others obeyed without question . . . except for the
Hound, but Joff never asked the Hound to punish her. He used the other five for that.
Ser Arys had light brown hair and a face that was not unpleasant to look upon. Today he made quite the
dashing figure, with his white silk cloak fastened at the shoulder by a golden leaf, and a spreading oak
tree worked upon the breast of his tunic in shining gold thread. "Who do you think will win the day's
honors?" Sansa asked as they descended the steps arm in arm.
"I will," Ser Arys answered, smiling. "Yet I fear the triumph will have no savor. This will be a small field,
and poor. No more than two score will enter the lists, including squires and freeriders. There is small
honor in unhorsing green boys."
The last tourney had been different, Sansa reflected. King Robert had staged it in her father's honor.
High lords and fabled champions had come from all over the realm to compete, and the whole city had
turned out to watch. She remembered the splendor of it: the field of pavilions along the river with a
knight's shield hung before each door, the long rows of silken pennants waving in the wind, the gleam of
sunlight on bright steel and gilded spurs. The days had rung to the sounds of trumpets and pounding
hooves, and the nights had been full of feasts and song. Those had been the most magical days of her life,


but they seemed a memory from another age now. Robert Baratheon was dead, and her father as well,
beheaded for a traitor on the steps of the Great Sept of Baelor. Now there were three kings in the land,
and war raged beyond the Trident while the city filled with desperate men. Small wonder that they
had to hold Joff's tournament behind the thick stone walls of the Red Keep.
"Will the queen attend, do you think?" Sansa always felt safer when Cersei was there to restrain her son.
"I fear not, my lady. The council is meeting, some urgent business." Ser Arys dropped his voice. "Lord
Tywin has gone to ground at Harrenhal instead of bringing his army to the city as the queen commanded.
Her Grace is furious." He fell silent as a column of Lannister guardsmen marched past, in crimson cloaks
and lion-crested helms. Ser Arys was fond of gossip, but only when he was certain that no one was
listening.
The carpenters had erected a gallery and lists in the outer bailey. It was a poor thing indeed, and the
meager throng that had gathered to watch filled but half the seats. Most of the spectators were
guardsmen in the gold cloaks of the City Watch or the crimson of House Lannister; of lords and ladies
there were but a paltry few, the handful that remained at court. Grey-faced Lord Gyles Rosby was
coughing into a square of pink silk. Lady Tanda. was bracketed by her daughters, placid dull Lollys and
acid-tongued Falyse. Ebon-skinned Jalabhar Xho was an exile who had no other refuge, Lady
Ermesande a babe seated on her wet nurse's lap. The talk was she would soon be wed to one of the
queen's cousins, so the Lannisters might claim her lands.
The king was shaded beneath a crimson canopy, one leg thrown negligently over the carved wooden
arm of his chair. Princess Myrcella and Prince Tornmen sat behind him. In the back of the royal box,
Sandor Clegane stood at guard, his hands resting on his swordbelt. The white cloak of the Kingsguard
was draped over his broad shoulders and fastened with a jeweled brooch, the snowy cloth looking
somehow unnatural against his brown roughspun tunic and studded leather jerkin. "Lady Sansa," the
Hound announced curtly when he saw her. His voice was as rough as the sound of a saw on wood. The
burn scars on his face and throat made one side of his mouth twitch when he spoke.
Princess Myrcella nodded a shy greeting at the sound of Sansa's name, but plump little Prince Tommen
jumped up eagerly. "Sansa, did you hear? I'm to ride in the tourney today. Mother said I could."
Tornmen was all of eight. He reminded her of her own little brother, Bran. They were of an age. Bran
was back at Winterfell, a cripple, yet safe.
Sansa would have given anything to be with him. "I fear for the life of your foeman," she told Tornmen
solemnly.
"His foeman will be stuffed with straw," Joff said as he rose. The king was clad in a gilded breastplate
with a roaring lion engraved upon its chest, as if he expected the war to engulf them at any moment. He
was thirteen today, and tall for his age, with the green eyes and golden hair of the Lannisters.
"Your Grace," she said, dipping in a curtsy.
Ser Arys bowed. "Pray pardon me, Your Grace. I must equip myself for the lists."
Joffrey waved a curt dismissal while he studied Sansa from head to heels. "I'm pleased you wore my
stones."
So the king had decided to play the gallant today. Sansa was relieved. "I thank you for them . . . and for


your tender words. I pray you a lucky name day, Your Grace."
"Sit," Joff commanded, gesturing her to the empty seat beside his own. "Have you heard? The Beggar
King is dead."
"Who?" For a moment Sansa was afraid he meant Robb.
"Viserys. The last son of Mad King Aerys. He's been going about the Free Cities since before I was
born, calling himself a king. Well, Mother says the Dothraki finally crowned him. With molten gold." He
laughed. "That's funny, don't you think? The dragon was their sigil. It's almost as good as if some wolf
killed your traitor brother. Maybe I'll feed him to wolves after I've caught him. Did I tell you, I intend to
challenge him to single combat?"
"I should like to see that, Your Grace." More than you know Sansa kept her tone cool and polite, yet
even so Joffrey's eyes narrowed as he tried to decide whether she was mocking him. "Will you enter the
lists today?" she asked quickly.
The king frowned. "My lady mother said it was not fitting, since the tourney is in my honor. Otherwise I
would have been champion. Isn't that so, dog?"
The Hound's mouth twitched. "Against this lot? Why not?"
He had been the champion in her father's tourney, Sansa remembered. "Will you joust today, my lord?"
she asked him.
Clegane's voice was thick with contempt. "Wouldn't be worth the bother of arming myself. This is a
tournament of gnats."
The king laughed. "My dog has a fierce bark. Perhaps I should command him to fight the day's
champion. To the death." Joffrey was fond of making men fight to the death.
"You'd be one knight the poorer." The Hound had never taken a knight's vows. His brother was a
knight, and he hated his brother.
A blare of trumpets sounded. The king settled back in his seat and took Sansa's hand. Once that would
have set her heart to pounding, but that was before he had answered her plea for mercy by presenting
her with her father's head. His touch filled her with revulsion now, but she knew better than to show it.
She made herself sit very still.
"Ser Meryn Trant of the Kingsguard, " a herald called.
Ser Meryn entered from the west side of the yard, clad in gleaming white plate chased with gold and
mounted on a milk-white charger with
a flowing grey mane. His cloak streamed behind him like a field of snow. He carried a twelve-foot lance.
"Ser Hobber of House Redwyne, of the Arbor," the herald sang. Ser Hobber trotted in from the east,
riding a black stallion caparisoned in burgundy and blue. His lance was striped in the same colors, and his
shield bore the grape cluster sigil of his House. The Redwyne twins were the queen's unwilling guests,
even as Sansa was. She wondered whose notion it had been for them to ride in Joffrey's tourney. Not
their own, she thought.


At a signal from the master of revels, the combatants couched their lances and put their spurs to their
mounts. There were shouts from the watching guardsmen and the lords and ladies in the gallery. The
knights came together in the center of the yard with a great shock of wood and steel. The white lance and
the striped one exploded in splinters within a second of each other. Hobber Redwyne reeled at the
impact, yet somehow managed to keep his seat. Wheeling their horses about at the far end of the lists,
the knights tossed down their broken lances and accepted replacements from the squires. Ser Horas
Redwyne, Ser Hobber's twin, shouted encouragement to his brother.
But on their second pass Ser Meryn swung the point of his lance to strike Ser Hobber in the chest,
driving him from the saddle to crash resoundingly to the earth. Ser Horas cursed and ran out to help his
battered brother from the field.
"Poorly ridden," declared King Joffrey.
"Ser Balon Swann, of Stonehelm in the Red Watch," came the herald's cry. Wide white wings
ornamented Ser Balon's greathelm, and black and white swans fought on his shield. "Morros of House
Slynt, heir to Lord Janos of Harrenhal."
"Look at that upiumped oaf," Joff hooted, loud enough for half the yard to hear. Morros, a mere squire
and a new-made squire at that, was having difficulty managing lance and shield. The lance was a knight's
weapon, Sansa knew, the Slynts lowborn. Lord Janos had been no more than commander of the City
Watch before Joffrey had raised him to Han renhal and the council.
I hope he falls and shames himself, she thought bitterly. I hope Ser Balon kills him. When Joffrey
proclaimed her father's death, it had been Janos Slynt who seized Lord Eddard's severed head by the
hair and raised it on high for king and crowd to behold, while Sansa wept and screamed.
Morros wore a checkered black-and-gold cloak over black armor inlaid with golden scrollwork. On his
shield was the bloody spear his father had chosen as the sigil of their new-made house. But he did not
seem to know what to do with the shield as he urged his horse forward, and Ser
Balon's point struck the blazon square. Morros dropped his lance, fought for balance, and lost. One foot
caught in a stirrup as he fell, and the runaway charger dragged the youth to the end of the lists, head
bouncing against the ground. Joff hooted derision. Sansa was appalled, wondering if the gods had heard
her vengeful prayer. But when they disentangled Morros Slynt from his horse, they found him bloodied
but alive. "Tommen, we picked the wrong foe for you," the king told his brother. "The straw knight jousts
better than that one."
Next came Ser Horas Redwyne's turn. He fared better than his twin, vanquishing an elderly knight
whose mount was bedecked with silver griffins against a striped blue-and-white field. Splendid as he
looked, the old man made a poor contest of it. Joffrey curled his lip. "This is a feeble show."
"I warned you," said the Hound. "Gnats."
The king was growing bored. it made Sansa anxious. She lowered her eyes and resolved to keep quiet,
no matter what. When Joffrey Baratheon's mood darkened, any chance word might set off one of his
rages.
"Lothor Brune, freerider in the service of Lord Baelish, " cried the herald. "Ser Dontos the Red, of
House Hollard. "


The freerider, a small man in dented plate without device, duly appeared at the west end of the yard, but
of his opponent there was no sign. Finally a chestnut stallion trotted into view in a swirl of crimson and
scarlet silks, but Ser Dontos was not on it. The knight appeared a moment later, cursing and staggering,
clad in breastplate and plumed helm and nothing else. His legs were pale and skinny, and his manhood
flopped about obscenely as he chased after his horse. The watchers roared and shouted insults. Catching
his horse by the bridle, Ser Dontos tried to mount, but the animal would not stand still and the knight was
so drunk that his bare foot kept missing the stirrup.
By then the crowd was howling with laughter . . . all but the king. Joffrey had a look in his eyes that
Sansa remembered well, the same look he'd had at the Great Sept of Baelor the day he pronounced
death on Lord Eddard Stark. Finally Ser Dontos the Red gave it up for a bad job, sat down in the dirt,
and removed his plumed helm. "I lose," he shouted. "Fetch me some wine."
The king stood. "A cask from the cellars! I'll see him drowned in it."
Sansa heard herself gasp. "No, you can't."
Joffrey turned his head. "What did you say?"
Sansa could not believe she had spoken. Was she mad? To tell him no in front of half the court? She
hadn't meant to say anything, only . . . Ser Dontos was drunk and silly and useless, but he meant no
harm.
"Did you say I can't? Did you?"
"Please," Sansa said, "I only meant . . . it would be ill luck, Your Grace . . . to, to kill a man on your
name day."
"You're lying," Joffrey said. "I ought to drown you with him, if you care for him so much."
"I don't care for him, Your Grace." The words tumbled out desperately. "Drown him or have his head
off, only . . . kill him on the morrow, if you like, but please . . . not today, not on your name day. I
couldn't bear for you to have ill luck . . . terrible luck, even for kings, the singers all say so . . .
Joffrey scowled. He knew she was lying, she could see it. He would make her bleed for this.
"The girl speaks truly," the Hound rasped. "What a man sows on his name day, he reaps throughout the
year." His voice was flat, as if he did not care a whit whether the king believed him or no. Could it be
true? Sansa had not known. It was just something she'd said, desperate to avoid punishment.
Unhappy, Joffrey shifted in his seat and flicked his fingers at Ser Dontos. "Take him away. I'll have him
killed on the morrow, the fool."
"He is," Sansa said. "A fool. You're so clever, to see it. He's better fitted to be a fool than a knight, isn't
he? You ought to dress him in motley and make him clown for you. He doesn't deserve the mercy of a
quick death."
The king studied her a moment. "Perhaps you're not so stupid as Mother says." He raised his voice. "Did
you hear my lady, Dontos? From this day on, you're my new fool. You can sleep with Moon Boy and
dress in motley."


Ser Dontos, sobered by his near brush with death, crawled to his knees. "Thank you, Your Grace. And
you, my lady. Thank you."
As a brace of Lannister guardsmen led him off, the master of revels approached the box. "Your Grace,"
he said, "shall I summon a new challenger for Brune, or proceed with the next tilt?"
"Neither. These are gnats, not knights. I'd have them all put to death, only it's my name day. The tourney
is done. Get them all out of my sight."
The master of revels bowed, but Prince Tommen was not so obedient. "I'm supposed to ride against the
straw man."
"Not today."
"But I want to ride!"
"I don't care what you want."
"Mother said I could ride."
"She said," Princess Myrcella agreed.
"Mother said," mocked the king. "Don't be childish."
"We're children," Myrcella declared haughtily. "We're supposed to be childish."
The Hound laughed. "She has you there."
Joffrey was beaten. "Very well. Even my brother couldn't tilt any worse than these others. Master, bring
out the quintain, Tommen wants to be a gnat."
Tornmen gave a shout of joy and ran off to be readied, his chubby little legs pumping hard. "Luck,"
Sansa called to him.
They set up the quintain at the far end of the lists while the prince's pony was being saddled. Tommen's
opponent was a child-sized leather warrior stuffed with straw and mounted on a pivot, with a shield in
one hand and a padded mace in the other. Someone had fastened a pair of antlers to the knight's head.
Joffrey's father King Robert had worn antlers on his helm, Sansa remembered . . . but so did his uncle
Lord Renly, Robert's brother, who had turned traitor and crowned himself king.
A pair of squires buckled the prince into his ornate silver-and-crimson armor. A tall plume of red
feathers sprouted from the crest of his helm, and the lion of Lannister and crowned stag of Baratheon
frolicked together on his shield. The squires helped him mount, and Ser Aron Santagar, the Red Keep's
master-at-arms, stepped forward and handed Tornmen a blunted silver longsword with a leaf-shaped
blade, crafted to fit an eight-year-old hand.
Tornmen raised the blade high. "Casterly Rock!" he shouted in a high boyish voice as he put his heels
into his pony and started across the hard-packed dirt at the quintain. Lady Tanda and Lord Gyles started
a ragged cheer, and Sansa added her voice to theirs. The king brooded in silence.


Tornmen got his pony up to a brisk trot, waved his sword vigorously, and struck the knight's shield a
solid blow as he went by. The quintain spun, the padded mace flying around to give the prince a mighty
whack in the back of his head. Tommen spilled from the saddle, his new armor rattling like a bag of old
pots as he hit the ground. His sword went flying, his pony cantered away across the bailey, and a great
gale of derision went up. King Joffrey laughed longest and loudest of all.
"Oh," Princess Myrcella cried. She scrambled out of the box and ran to her little brother.
Sansa found herself possessed of a queer giddy courage. "You should go with her," she told the king.
"Your brother might be hurt."
Joffrey shrugged. "What if he is?"
"You should help him up and tell him how well he rode." Sansa could not seem to stop herself.
"He got knocked off his horse and fell in the dirt," the king pointed out. "That's not riding well."
"Look," the Hound interrupted. "The boy has courage. He's going to try again."
They were helping Prince Tornmen mount his pony. If only Tommen were the elder instead of foffrey,
Sansa thought. I wouldn't mind marrying Tommen.
The sounds from the gatehouse took them by surprise. Chains rattled as the portcullis was drawn
upward, and the great gates opened to the creak of iron hinges. "Who told them to open the gate?" Joff
demanded. With the troubles in the city, the gates of the Red Keep had been closed for days.
A column of riders emerged from beneath the portcullis with a clink of steel and a clatter of hooves.
Clegane stepped close to the king, one hand on the hilt of his longsword. The visitors were dinted and
haggard and dusty, yet the standard they carried was the lion of Lannister, golden on its crimson field. A
few wore the red cloaks and mail of Lannister men-at-arms, but more were freeriders and sellswords,
armored in oddments and bristling with sharp steel . . . and there were others, monstrous savages out of
one of Old Nan's tales, the scary ones Bran used to love. They were clad in shabby skins and boiled
leather, with long hair and fierce beards. Some wore bloodstained bandages over their brows or
wrapped around their hands, and others were missing eyes, ears, and fingers.
In their midst, riding on a tall red horse in a strange high saddle that cradled him back and front, was the
queen's dwarf brother Tyrion Lannister, the one they called the Imp. He had let his beard grow to cover
his pushed-in face, until it was a bristly tangle of yellow and black hair, coarse as wire. Down his back
flowed a shadowskin cloak, black fur striped with white. He held the reins in his left hand and carried his
right arm in a white silk sling, but otherwise looked as grotesque as Sansa remembered from when he
had visited Winterfell. With his bulging brow and mismatched eyes, he was still the ugliest man she had
ever chanced to look upon.
Yet Tornmen put his spurs into his pony and galloped headlong across the yard, shouting with glee. One
of the savages, a huge shambling man so hairy that his face was all but lost beneath his whiskers, scooped
the boy out of his saddle, armor and all, and deposited him on the ground beside his uncle. Tommen's
breathless laughter echoed off the walls as Tyrion clapped him on the backplate, and Sansa was startled
to see that the two were of a height. Myrcella came running after her brother, and the dwarf picked her
up by the waist and spun her in a circle, squealing.
When he lowered her back to the ground, the little man kissed her lightly on the brow and came


waddling across the yard toward Joffrey.
Two of his men followed close behind him; a black-haired black-eyed sellsword who moved like a
stalking cat, and a gaunt youth with an empty socket where one eye should have been. Tornmen and
Myrcella trailed after them.
The dwarf went to one knee before the king. "Your Grace."
"You," Joffrey said.
"Me," the Imp agreed, "although a more courteous greeting might be in order, for an uncle and an elder."
"They said you were dead," the Hound said.
The little man gave the big one a look. One of his eyes was green, one was black, and both were cool.
"I was speaking to the king, not to his cur."
"I'm glad you're not dead," said Princess Myrcella.
"We share that view, sweet child." Tyrion turned to Sansa. "My lady, I am sorry for your losses. Truly,
the gods are cruel."
Sansa could not think of a word to say to him. How could he be sorry for her losses? Was he mocking
her? It wasn't the gods who'd been cruel, it was Joffrey.
"I am sorry for your loss as well, Joffrey," the dwarf said.
"What loss?"
"Your royal father? A large fierce man with a black beard; you'll recall him if you try. He was king
before you."
"Oh, him. Yes, it was very sad, a boar killed him."
"Is that what 'they' say, Your Grace?"
Joffrey frowned. Sansa felt that she ought to say something. What was it that Septa Mordane used to tell
her? A lady's armor is courtesy, that was it. She donned her armor and said, "I'm sorry my lady mother
took you captive, my lord."
"A great many people are sorry for that," Tyrion replied, "and before I am done, some may be a deal
sorrier . . . yet I thank you for the sentiment. Joffrey, where might I find your mother?"
"She's with my council," the king answered. "Your brother Jaime keeps losing battles." He gave Sansa
an angry look, as if it were her fault. "He's been taken by the Starks and we've lost Riverrun and now her
stupid brother is calling himself a king."
The dwarf smiled crookedly. "All sorts of people are calling themselves kings these days."
Joff did not know what to make of that, though he looked suspicious and out of sorts. "Yes. Well. I am
pleased you're not dead, Uncle. Did you bring me a gift for my name day?"


"I did. My wits."
"I'd sooner have Robb Stark's head," Joff said with a sly glance at Sansa. "Tommen, Myrcella, come."
Sandor Clegane lingered behind a moment. "I'd guard that tongue of yours, little man," he warned,
before he strode off after his liege.
Sansa was left with the dwarf and his monsters. She tried to think of what else she might say. "You hurt
your arm," she managed at last.
"One of your northmen hit me with a morningstar during the battle on the Green Fork. I escaped him by
falling off my horse." His grin turned into something softer as he studied her face. "Is it grief for your lord
father that makes you so sad?"
"My father was a traitor," Sansa said at once. "And my brother and lady mother are traitors as well."
That reflex she had learned quickly. "I am loyal to my beloved Joffrey."
"No doubt. As loyal as a deer surrounded by wolves."
"Lions," she whispered, without thinking. She glanced about nervously, but there was no one close
enough to hear.
Lannister reached out and took her hand, and gave it a squeeze. "I am only a little lion, child, and I vow,
I shall not savage you." Bowing, he said "But now you must excuse me. I have urgent business with
queen and council."
Sansa watched him walk off, his body swaying heavily from side to side with every step, like something
from a grotesquerie. He speaks more gently than foffrey, she thought, but the queen spoke to me gently
too. He's still a Lannister, her brother and foff's uncle, and no friend. Once she had loved Prince Joffrey
with all her heart, and admired and trusted his mother, the queen. They had repaid that love and trust with
her father's head. Sansa would never make that mistake again.
CHAPTER 3
TYRION
In the chilly white raiment of the Kingsguard, Ser Mandon Moore looked like a corpse in a shroud. "Her
Grace left orders, the council in session is not to be disturbed."
"I would be only a small disturbance, ser." Tyrion slid the parchment from his sleeve. "I bear a letter from
my father, Lord Tywin Lannister, the Hand of the King. There is his seal."
"Her Grace does not wish to be disturbed," Ser Mandon repeated slowly, as if Tyrion were a dullard
who had not heard him the first time.
Jaime had once told him that Moore was the most dangerous of the Kingsguard-excepting himself,


always-because his face gave no hint as what he might do next. Tyrion would have welcomed a hint.
Bronn and Timett could likely kill the knight if it came to swords, but it would scarcely bode well if he
began by slaying one of Joffrey's protectors. Yet if he let the man turn him away, where was his
authority? He made himself smile. "Ser Mandon, you have not met my companions. This is Timett son of
Timett, a red hand of the Burned Men. And this is Bronn. Perchance you recall Ser Vardis Egen, who
was captain of Lord Arryn's household guard?"
"I know the man." Ser Mandon's eyes were pale grey, oddly flat and lifeless.
"Knew," Bronn corrected with a thin smile.
Ser Mandon did not deign to show that he had heard that.
"Be that as it may," Tyrion said lightly, "I truly must see my sister
and present my letter, ser. If you would be so kind as to open the door for us?"
The white knight did not respond. Tyrion was almost at the point of trying to force his way past when
Ser Mandon abruptly stood aside. "You may enter. They may not."
A small victory, he thought, but sweet. He had passed his first test. Tyrion Lannister shouldered through
the door, feeling almost tall. Five members of the king's small council broke off their discussion suddenly.
"You," his sister Cersei said in a tone that was equal parts disbelief and distaste.
"I can see where Joffrey learned his courtesies." Tyrion paused to admire the pair of Valyrian sphinxes
that guarded the door, affecting an air of casual confidence. Cersei could smell weakness the way a dog
smells f ear.
"What are you doing here?" His sister's lovely green eyes studied him without the least hint of affection.
"Delivering a letter from our lord father." He sauntered to the table and placed the tightly rolled
parchment between them.
The eunuch Varys took the letter and turned it in his delicate powdered hands. "How kind of Lord
Tywin. And his scaling wax is such a lovely shade of gold." Varys gave the seal a close inspection. "It
gives every appearance of being genuine."
"Of course it's genuine." Cersei snatched it out of his hands. She broke the wax and unrolled the
parchment.
Tyrion watched her read. His sister had taken the king's seat for herself-he gathered Joffrey did not often
trouble to attend council meetings, no more than Robert had-so Tyrion climbed up into the Hand's chair.
it seemed only appropriate.
"This is absurd," the queen said at last. "My lord father has sent my brother to sit in his place in this
council. He bids us accept Tyrion as the Hand of the King, until such time as he himself can join us."
Grand Maester Pycelle stroked his flowing white beard and nodded ponderously. "It would seem that a
welcome is in order."
"Indeed." jowly, balding Janos Slynt looked rather like a frog, a smug frog who had gotten rather above


himself. "We have sore need of you, my lord. Rebellion everywhere, this grim omen in the sky, rioting in
the city streets . . ."
"And whose fault is that, Lord Janos?" Cersei lashed out. "Your gold cloaks are charged with keeping
order. As to you, Tyrion, you could better serve us on the field of battle."
He laughed. "No, I'm done with fields of battle, thank you. I sit a chair better than a horse, and I'd
sooner hold a wine goblet than a battle-axe. All that about the thunder of the drums, sunlight flashing on
armor,
magnificent destriers snorting and prancing? Well, the drums gave me headaches, the sunlight flashing on
my armor cooked me up like a harvest day goose, and those magnificent destriers shit everywhere. Not
that I am complaining. Compared to the hospitality I enjoyed in the Vale of Arryn, drums, horseshit, and
fly bites are my favorite things."
Littlefinger laughed. "Well said, Lannister. A man after my own heart. "
Tyrion smiled at him, remembering a certain dagger with a dragonbone hilt and a Valyrian steel blade.
We must have a talk about that, and soon. He wondered if Lord Petyr would find that subject amusing as
well. "Please," he told them, "do let me be of service, in whatever small way I can."
Cersei read the letter again. "How many men have you brought with you? "
"A few hundred. My own men, chiefly. Father was loath to part with any of his. He is fighting a war,
after all."
"What use will your few hundred men be if Renly marches on the city, or Stannis sails from
Dragonstone? I ask for an army and my father sends me a dwarf. The king names the Hand, with the
consent of council. Joffrey named our lord father."
"And our lord father named me."
"He cannot do that. Not without Joff's consent."
"Lord Tywin is at Harrenhal with his host, if you'd care to take it up with him," Tyrion said politely. "My
lords, perchance you would permit me a private word with my sister?"
Varys slithered to his feet, smiling in that unctuous way he had. "How you must have yearned for the
sound of your sweet sister's voice. My lords, please, let us give them a few moments together. The woes
of our troubled realm shall keep."
Janos Slynt rose hesitantly and Grand Maester Pycelle ponderously, yet they rose. Littlefinger was the
last. "Shall I tell the steward to prepare chambers in Maegor's Holdfast?"
"My thanks, Lord Petyr, but I will be taking Lord Stark's former quarters in the Tower of the Hand."
Littlefinger laughed. "You're a braver man than me, Lannister. You do know the fate of our last two
Hands?"
"Two? If you mean to frighten me, why not say four?"


"Four?" Littlefinger raised an eyebrow. "Did the Hands before Lord Arryn meet some dire end in the
Tower? I'm afraid I was too young to pay them much mind."
"Aerys Targaryen's last Hand was killed during the Sack of King's Landing, though I doubt he'd had
time to settle into the Tower. He was only Hand for a fortnight. The one before him was burned to death.
And
before them came two others who died landless and penniless in exile, and counted themselves lucky. I
believe my lord father was the last Hand to depart King's Landing with his name, properties, and parts all
intact."
"Fascinating," said Littlefinger. "And all the more reason I'd sooner bed down in the dungeon."
Perhaps you'll get that wish, Tyrion thought, but he said, "Courage and folly are cousins, or so I've
heard. Whatever curse may linger over the Tower of the Hand, I pray I'm small enough to escape its
notice."
Janos Slynt laughed, Littlefinger smiled, and Grand Maester Pycelle followed them both out, bowing
gravely.
"I hope Father did not send you all this way to plague us with history lessons," his sister said when they
were alone.
"How I have yearned for the sound of your sweet voice," Tyrion sighed to her.
"How I have yearned to have that eunuch's tongue pulled out with hot pincers," Cersei replied. "Has
father lost his senses? Or did you forge this letter?" She read it once more, with mounting annoyance.
"Why would he inflict you on me? I wanted him to come himself." She crushed Lord Tywin's letter in her
fingers. "I am Joffrey's regent, and I sent him a royal command!"
"And he ignored you," Tyrion pointed out. "He has quite a large army, he can do that. Nor is he the first.
Is he?"
Cersei's mouth tightened. He could see her color rising. "If I name this letter a forgery and tell them to
throw you in a dungeon, no one will ignore that, I promise you."
He was walking on rotten ice now, Tyrion knew. One false step and he would plunge through. "No
one," he agreed amiably, "least of all our father. The one with the army. But why should you want to
throw me into a dungeon, sweet sister, when I've come all this long way to help you? "
"I do not require your help. It was our father's presence that I commanded."
"Yes," he said quietly, "but it's Jaime you want."
His sister fancied herself subtle, but he had grown up with her. He could read her face like one of his
favorite books, and what he read now was rage, and fear, and despair. "Jaime-"
"-is my brother no less than yours," Tyrion interrupted. "Give me your support and I promise you, we
will have Jaime freed and returned to us unharmed."
"How?" Cersei demanded. "The Stark boy and his mother are not like to forget that we beheaded Lord


Eddard."
"True," Tyrion agreed, "yet you still hold his daughters, don't you? I saw the older girl out in the yard
with Joffrey."
"Sansa," the queen said. "I've given it out that I have the younger brat as well, but it's a lie. I sent Meryn
Trant to take her in hand when Robert died, but her wretched dancing master interfered and the girl fled.
No one has seen her since. Likely she's dead. A great many people died that day."
Tyrion had hoped for both Stark girls, but he supposed one would have to do. "Tell me about our
friends on the council."
His sister glanced at the door. "What of them?"
"Father seems to have taken a dislike to them. When I left him, he was wondering how their heads might
look on the wall beside Lord Stark's." He leaned forward across the table. "Are you certain of their
loyalty? Do you trust them?"
"I trust no one," Cersei snapped. "I need them. Does Father believe they are playing us false?"
"Suspects, rather."
"Why? What does he know?"
Tyrion shrugged. "He knows that your son's short reign has been a long parade of follies and disasters.
That suggests that someone is giving Joffrey some very bad counsel."
Cersei gave him a searching look. "Joff has had no lack of good counsel. He's always been
strong-willed. Now that he's king, he believes he should do as he pleases, not as he's bid."
"Crowns do queer things to the heads beneath them," Tyrion agreed. "This business with Eddard Stark .
. . Joffrey's work? "
The queen grimaced. "He was instructed to pardon Stark, to allow him to take the black. The man
would have been out of our way forever, and we might have made peace with that son of his, but Joff
took it upon himself to give the mob a better show. What was I to do? He called for Lord Eddard's head
in front of half the city. And Janos Slynt and Ser Ilyn went ahead blithely and shortened the man without a
word from me!" Her hand tightened into a fist. "The High Septon claims we profaned Baelor's Sept with
blood, after lying to him about our intent."
"It would seem he has a point," said Tyrion. "So this Lord Slynt, he was part of it, was he? Tell me,
whose fine notion was it to grant him Harrenhal and name him to the council?"
"Littlefinger made the arrangements. We needed Slynt's gold cloaks. Eddard Stark was plotting with
Renly and he'd written to Lord Stannis, offering him the throne. We might have lost all. Even so, it was a
close thing. If Sansa hadn't come to me and told me all her father's plans . . ."
Tyrion was surprised. "Truly? His own daughter?" Sansa had always seemed such a sweet child, tender
and courteous.
"The girl was wet with love. She would have done anything for Joffrey, until he cut off her father's head


and called it mercy. That put an end to that."
"His Grace has a unique way of winning the hearts of his subjects," Tyrion said with a crooked smile.
"Was it Joffrey's wish to dismiss Ser Barristan Selmy from his Kingsguard too?"
Cersei sighed. "Joff wanted someone to blame for Robert's death. Varys suggested Ser Barristan. Why
not? It gave Jaime command of the Kingsguard and a seat on the small council, and allowed Joff to throw
a bone to his dog. He is very fond of Sandor Clegane. We were prepared to offer Selmy some land and
a towerhouse, more than the useless old fool deserved."
"I hear that useless old fool slew two of Slynt's gold cloaks when they tried to seize him at the Mud
Gate."
His sister looked very unhappy. "Janos should have sent more men. He is not as competent as might be
wished."
"Ser Barristan was the Lord Commander of Robert Baratheon's Kingsguard," Tyrion reminded her
pointedly. "He and Jaime are the only survivors of Aerys Targaryen's seven. The smallfolk talk of him in
the same way they talk of Serwyn of the Mirror Shield and Prince Aemon the Dragonknight. What do
you imagine they'll think when they see Barristan the Bold riding beside Robb Stark or Stannis
Baratheon?"
Cersei glanced away. "I had not considered that."
"Father did," said Tyrion. "That is why he sent me. To put an end to these follies and bring your son to
heel."
"Joff will be no more tractable for you than for me."
"He might."
"Why should he?"
"He knows you would never hurt him."
Cersei's eyes narrowed. "If you believe I'd ever allow you to harm my son, you're sick with fever."
Tyrion sighed. She'd missed the point, as she did so often. "Joffrey is as safe with me as he is with you,"
he assured her, "but so long as the boy feels threatened, he'll be more inclined to listen." He took her
hand. "I am your brother, you know. You need me, whether you care to admit it or no. Your son needs
me, if he's to have a hope of retaining that ugly iron chair."
His sister seemed shocked that he would touch her. "You have always been cunning."
"In my own small way." He grinned.
"It may be worth the trying . . . but make no mistake, Tyrion. If I accept you, you shall be the King's
Hand in name, but my Hand in truth.
You will share all your plans and intentions with me before you act, and you will do nothing without my
consent. Do you understand?"


"Oh, yes."
"Do you agree?"
"Certainly," he lied. "I am yours, sister." For as long as I need to be. "So, now that we are of one
purpose, we ought have no more secrets between us. You say Joffrey had Lord Eddard killed, Varys
dismissed Ser Barristan, and Littlefinger gifted us with Lord Slynt. Who murdered Jon Arryn? "
Cersei yanked her hand back. "How should I know?"
"The grieving widow in the Eyrie seems to think it was me. Where did she come by that notion, I
wonder?"
"I'm sure I don't know. That fool Eddard Stark accused me of the same thing. He hinted that Lord Arryn
suspected or . . . well, believed
"That you were fucking our sweet Jaime?"
She slapped him.
"Did you think I was as blind as Father?" Tyrion rubbed his cheek. "Who you lie with is no matter to me
. . . although it doesn't seem quite just that you should open your legs for one brother and not the other."
She slapped him.
"Be gentle, Cersei, I'm only jesting with you. If truth be told, I'd sooner have a nice whore. I never
understood what Jaime saw in you, apart from his own reflection."
She slapped him.
His cheeks were red and burning, yet he smiled. "If you keep doing that, I may get angry."
That stayed her hand. "Why should I care if you do?"
"I have some new friends," Tyrion confessed. "You won't like them at all. How did you kill Robert?"
"He did that himself. All we did was help. When Lancel saw that Robert was going after boar, he gave
him strongwine. His favorite sour red, but fortified, three times as potent as he was used to. The great
stinking fool loved it. He could have stopped swilling it down anytime he cared to, but no, he drained one
skin and told Lancel to fetch another. The boar did the rest. You should have been at the feast, Tyrion.
There has never been a boar so delicious. They cooked it with mushrooms and apples, and it tasted like
triumph."
"Truly, sister, you were born to be a widow." Tyrion had rather liked Robert Baratheon, great blustering
oaf that he was . . . doubtless in part because his sister loathed him so. "Now, if you are done slapping
me, I will be off." He twisted his legs around and clambered down awkwardly from the chair.
Cersei frowned. "I haven't given you leave to depart. I want to know how you intend to free Jaime."
"I'll tell you when I know. Schemes are like fruit, they require a certain ripening. Right now, I have a


mind to ride through the streets and take the measure of this city." Tyrion rested his hand on the head of
the sphinx beside the door. "One parting request. Kindly make certain no harm comes to Sansa Stark. it
would not do to lose both the daughters."
Outside the council chamber, Tyrion nodded to Ser Mandon and made his way down the long vaulted
hall. Bronn fell in beside him. Of Timett son of Timett there was no sign. "Where's our red hand?" Tyrion
asked.
"He felt an urge to explore. His kind was not made for waiting about in halls."
"I hope he doesn't kill anyone important." The clansmen Tyrion had brought down from their fastnesses
in the Mountains of the Moon were loyal in their own fierce way, but they were proud and quarrelsome
as well, prone to answer insults real or imagined with steel. "Try to find him. And while you are at it, see
that the rest have been quartered and fed. I want them in the barracks beneath the Tower of the Hand,
but don't let the steward put the Stone Crows near the Moon Brothers, and tell him the Burned Men
must have a hall all to themselves."
"Where will you be?"
"I'm riding back to the Broken Anvil."
Bronn grinned insolently. "Need an escort? The talk is, the streets are dangerous."
"I'll call upon the captain of my sister's household guard, and remind him that I am no less a Lannister
than she is. He needs to recall that his oath is to Casterly Rock, not to Cersei or Joffrey."
An hour later, Tyrion rode from the Red Keep accompanied by a dozen Lannister guardsmen in crimson
cloaks and lion-crested halffielms. As they passed beneath the portcullis, he noted the heads mounted
atop the walls. Black with rot and old tar, they had long since become unrecognizable. "Captain Vylarr,"
he called, "I want those taken down on the morrow. Give them to the silent sisters for cleaning." It would
be hell to match them with the bodies, he supposed, yet it must be done. Even in the midst of war certain
decencies needed to be observed.
Vylarr grew hesitant. "His Grace has told us he wishes the traitors' heads to remain on the walls until he
fills those last three empty spikes there on the end."
"Let me hazard a wild stab. One is for Robb Stark, the others for Lords Stannis and Renly. Would that
be right?"
"Yes, my lord."
"My nephew is thirteen years old today, Vylarr. Try and recall that. I'll
have the heads down on the morrow, or one of those empty spikes may have a different lodger. Do you
take my meaning, Captain?"
"I'll see that they're taken down myself, my lord."
"Good." Tyrion put his heels into his horse and trotted away, leaving the red cloaks to follow as best
they could.


He had told Cersei he intended to take the measure of the city. That was not entirely a lie. Tyrion
Lannister was not pleased by much of what he saw. The streets of King's Landing had always been
teeming and raucous and noisy, but now they reeked of danger in a way that he did not recall from past
visits. A naked corpse sprawled in the gutter near the Street of Looms, being torn at by a pack of feral
dogs, yet no one seemed to care. Watchmen were much in evidence, moving in pairs through the alleys in
their gold cloaks and shirts of black ringmail, iron cudgels never far from their hands. The markets were
crowded with ragged men selling their household goods for any price they could get . . . and
conspicuously empty of farmers selling food. What little produce he did see was three times as costly as it
had been a year ago. one peddler was hawking rats roasted on a skewer. "Fresh rats," he cried loudly,
"fresh rats." Doubtless fresh rats were to be preferred to old stale rotten rats. The frightening thing was,
the rats looked more appetizing than most of what the butchers were selling. on the Street of Flour,
Tyrion saw guards at every other shop door. When times grew lean, even bakers found sellswords
cheaper than bread, he reflected.
"There is no food coming in, is there?" he said to Vylarr.
"Little enough," the captain admitted. "With the war in the riverlands and Lord Renly raising rebels in
Highgarden, the roads are closed to south and west."
"And what has my good sister done about this?"
"She is taking steps to restore the king's peace," Vylarr assured him. "Lord Slynt has tripled the size of
the City Watch, and the queen has put a thousand craftsmen to work on our defenses. The stonemasons
are strengthening the walls, carpenters are building scorpions and catapults by the hundred, fletchers are
making arrows, the smiths are forging blades, and the Alchemists' Guild has pledged ten thousand jars of
wildfire."
Tyrion shifted uncomfortably in his saddle. He was pleased that Cersei had not been idle, but wildfire
was treacherous stuff, and ten thousand jars were enough to turn all of King's Landing into cinders.
"Where has my sister found the coin to pay for all of this?" it was no secret that King Robert had left the
crown vastly in debt, and alchemists were seldom mistaken for altruists.
"Lord Littlefinger always finds a way, my lord. He has imposed a tax on those wishing to enter the city."
"Yes, that would work," Tyrion said, thinking, Clever. Clever and cruel. Tens of thousands had fled the
fighting for the supposed safety of King's Landing. He had seen them on the kingsroad, troupes of
mothers and children and anxious fathers who had gazed on his horses and wagons with covetous eyes.
Once they reached the city they would doubtless pay over all they had to put those high comforting walls
between them and the war . . . though they might think twice if they knew about the wildfire.
The inn beneath the sign of the broken anvil stood within sight of those walls, near the Gate of the Gods
where they had entered that morning. As they rode into its courtyard, a boy ran out to help Tyrion down
from his horse. "Take your men back to the castle," he told Vylarr. "I'll be spending the night here."
The captain looked dubious. "Will you be safe, my lord?"
"Well, as to that, Captain, when I left the inn this morning it was full of Black Ears. One is never quite
safe when Chella daughter of Cheyk is about." Tyrion waddled toward the door, leaving Vylarr to puzzle
at his meaning.
A gust of merriment greeted him as he shoved into the inn's common room. He recognized Chella's


throaty chuckle and the lighter music of Shae's laughter. The girl was seated by the hearth, sipping wine at
a round wooden table with three of the Black Ears he'd left to guard her and a plump man whose back
was to him. The innkeeper, he assumed . . . until Shae called Tyrion by name and the intruder rose. "My
good lord, I am so pleased to see you," he gushed, a soft eunuch's smile on his powdered face.
Tyrion stumbled. "Lord Varys. I had not thought to see you here." The Others take him, how did he find
them so quickly?
"Forgive me if I intrude," Varys said. "I was taken by a sudden urge to meet your young lady."
"Young lady," Shae repeated, savoring the words. "You're half right, m'lord. I'm young."
Eighteen, Tyrion thought. Eighteen, and a whore, but quick of wit, nimble as a cat between the sheets,
with large dark eyes and fine black hair and a sweet, soft, hungry little mouth . . . and mine! Damn you,
eunuch. "I fear I'm the intruder, Lord Varys," he said with forced courtesy. "When I came in, you were in
the midst of some merriment."
"M'lord Varys complimented Chella on her ears and said she must have killed many men to have such a
fine necklace," Shae explained. It grated on him to hear her call Varys m'lord in that tone; that was what
she called him in their pillow play. "And Chella told him only cowards kill the vanquished."
"Braver to leave the man alive, with a chance to cleanse his shame by
winning back his ear," explained Chella, a small dark woman whose grisly neckware was hung with no
less than forty-six dried, wrinkled ears. Tyrion had counted them once. "Only so can you prove you do
not fear your enemies."
Shae hooted. "And then m'lord says if he was a Black Ear he'd never sleep, for dreams of one-eared
men."
"A problem I will never need face," Tyrion said. "I'm terrified of my enemies, so I kill them all."
Varys giggled. "Will you take some wine with us, my lord?"
"I'll take some wine." Tyrion seated himself beside Shae. He understood what was happening here, if
Chella and the girl did not. Varys was delivering a message. When he said, I was taken by a sudden urge
to meet your young lady, what he meant was, You tried to hide her, but I knew where she was, and who
she was, and here I am. He wondered who had betrayed him. The innkeeper, that boy in the stable, a
guard on the gate . . . or one of his own?
"I always like to return to the city through the Gate of the Gods," Varys told Shae as he filled the wine
cups. "The carvings on the gatehouse are exquisite, they make me weep each time I see them. The eyes .
. . so expressive, don't you think? They almost seem to follow you as you ride beneath the portcullis."
"I never noticed, m'lord," Shae replied. "I'll look again on the morrow, if it please you."
Don't bother, sweetling, Tyrion thought, swirling the wine in the cup. He cares not a whit about carvings.
The eyes he boasts of are his own. What he means is that he was watching, that he knew we were here
the moment we passed through the gates.
"Do be careful, child," Varys urged. "King's Landing is not wholly safe these days. I know these streets


well, and yet I almost feared to come today, alone and unarmed as I was. Lawless men are everywhere
in this dark time, oh, yes. Men with cold steel and colder hearts." Where I can come alone and unarmed,
others can come with swords in their fists, he was saying.
Shae only laughed. "If they try and bother me, they'll be one ear short when Chella runs them off."
Varys hooted as if that was the funniest thing he had ever heard, but there was no laughter in his eyes
when he turned them on Tyrion. "Your young lady has an amiable way to her. I should take very good
care of her if I were you."
"I intend to. Any man who tries to harm her-well, I'm too small to be a Black Ear, and I make no claims
to courage." See? I speak the same tongue you do, eunuch. Hurt her, and I'll have your head.
"I will leave you." Varys rose. "I know how weary you must be. I only
wished to welcome you, my lord, and tell you how very pleased I am by your arrival. We have dire need
of you on the council. Have you seen the comet? "
"I'm short, not blind," Tyrion said. Out on the kingsroad, it had seemed to cover half the sky, outshining
the crescent moon.
"In the streets, they call it the Red Messenger," Varys said. "They say it comes as a herald before a king,
to warn of fire and blood to follow." The eunuch rubbed his powdered hands together. "May I leave you
with a bit of a riddle, Lord Tyrion?" He did not wait for an answer. "In a room sit three great men, a king,
a priest, and a rich man with his gold. Between them stands a sellsword, a little man of common birth and
no great mind. Each of the great ones bids him slay the other two. 'Do it' says the king, 'for I am your
lawful ruler.' 'Do it' says the priest, 'for I command you in the names of the gods.' 'Do it' says the rich
man, 'and all this gold shall be yours.' So tell me-who lives and who dies?" Bowing deeply, the eunuch
hurried from the common room on soft slippered feet.
When he was gone, Chella gave a snort and Shae wrinkled up her pretty face. "The rich man lives.
Doesn't he?"
Tyrion sipped at his wine, thoughtful. "Perhaps. Or not. That would depend on the sellsword, it seems."
He set down his cup. "Come, let's go upstairs."
She had to wait for him at the top of the steps, for her legs were slim and supple while his were short
and stunted and full of aches. But she was smiling when he reached her. "Did you miss me?" she teased
as she took his hand.
"Desperately," Tyrion admitted. Shae only stood a shade over five feet, yet still he must look up to her . .
. but in her case he found he did not mind. She was sweet to look up at.
"You'll miss me all the time in your Red Keep," she said as she led him to her room. "All alone in your
cold bed in your Tower of the Hand."
"Too true." Tyrion would gladly have kept her with him, but his lord father had forbidden it. You will not
take the whore to court, Lord Tywin had commanded. Bringing her to the city was as much defiance as
he dared. All his authority derived from his father, the girl had to understand that. "You won't be far," he
promised. "You'll have a house, with guards and servants, and I'll visit as often as I'm able."


Shae kicked shut the door. Through the cloudy panes of the narrow window, he could make out the
Great Sept of Baelor crowning Visenya's Hill but Tyrion was distracted by a different sight. Bending,
Shae took her gown by the hem, drew it over her head, and tossed it aside. She did not believe in
smallclothes. "You'll never be able to rest," she said as she
stood before him, pink and nude and lovely, one hand braced on her hip. "You'll think of me every time
you go to bed. Then you'll get hard and you'll have no one to help you and you'll never be able to sleep
unless you"-she grinned that wicked grin Tyrion liked so well-"is that why they call it the Tower of the
Hand, m'lord?"
"Be quiet and kiss me," he commanded.
He could taste the wine on her lips, and feel her small firm breasts pressed against him as her fingers
moved to the lacings of his breeches. "My lion," she whispered when he broke off the kiss to undress.
"My sweet lord, my giant of Lannister." Tyrion pushed her toward the bed. When he entered her, she
screamed loud enough to wake Baelor the Blessed in his tomb, and her nails left gouges in his back. He'd
never had a pain he liked half so well.
Fool, he thought to himself afterward, as they lay in the center of the sagging mattress amidst the rumpled
sheets. Will you never learn, dwarf? She's a whore, damn you, it's your coin she loves, not your cock.
Remember Tysha? Yet when his fingers trailed lightly over one nipple, it stiffened at the touch, and he
could see the mark on her breast where he'd bitten her in his passion.
"So what will you do, m'lord, now that you're the Hand of the King?" Shae asked him as he cupped that
warm sweet flesh.
"Something Cersei will never expect," Tyrion murmured softly against her slender neck. "I'll do . . .
justice."
CHAPTER 4
BRAN
Bran preferred the hard stone of the window seat to the comforts of his featherbed and blankets. Abed,
the walls pressed close and the ceiling hung heavy above him; abed, the room was his cell, and Winterfell
his prison. Yet outside his window, the wide world still called.
He could not walk, nor climb nor hunt nor fight with a wooden sword as once he had, but he could still
look. He liked to watch the windows begin to glow all over Winterfell as candles and hearth fires were lit
behind the diamond-shaped panes of tower and hall, and he loved to listen to the direwolves sing to the
stars.
Of late, he often dreamed of wolves. They are talking to me, brother to brother, he told himself when the
direwolves howled. He could almost understand them . . . not quite, not truly, but almost . . . as if they
were singing in a language he had once known and somehow forgotten. The Walders might be scared of
them, but the Starks had wolf blood. Old Nan told him so. "Though it is stronger in some than in others,"
she warned.


Summer's howls were long and sad, full of grief and longing. Shaggydog's were more savage. Their
voices echoed through the yards and halls until the castle rang and it seemed as though some great pack
of direwolves haunted Winterfell, instead of only two . . . two where there had once been six. Do they
miss their brothers and sisters too? Bran wondered. Are they calling to Grey Wind and Ghost, to
Nymeria
and Lady's Shade? Do they want them to come home and be a pack together?
"Who can know the mind of a wolf?" Ser Rodrik Cassel said when Bran asked him why they howled.
Bran's lady mother had named him castellan of Winterfell in her absence, and his duties left him little time
for idle questions.
"It's freedom they're calling for," declared Farlen, who was kennelmaster and had no more love for the
direwolves than his hounds did. "They don't like being walled up, and who's to blame them? Wild things
belong in the wild, not in a castle."
"They want to hunt," agreed Gage the cook as he tossed cubes of suet in a great kettle of stew. "A wolf
smells better'n any man. Like as not, they've caught the scent o' prey."
Maester Luwin did not think so. "Wolves often howl at the moon. These are howling at the comet. See
how bright it is, Bran? Perchance they think it is the moon."
When Bran repeated that to Osha, she laughed aloud. "Your wolves have more wit than your maester,"
the wildling woman said. "They know truths the grey man has forgotten." The way she said it made him
shiver, and when he asked what the comet meant, she answered, "Blood and fire, boy, and nothing
sweet."
Bran asked Septon Chayle about the comet while they were sorting through some scrolls snatched from
the library fire. "It is the sword that slays the season," he replied, and soon after the white raven came
from Oldtown bringing word of autumn, so doubtless he was right.
Though Old Nan did not think so, and she'd lived longer than any of them. "Dragons," she said, lifting her
head and sniffing. She was near blind and could not see the comet, yet she claimed she could smell it. "It
be dragons, boy," she insisted. Bran got no princes from Nan, no more than he ever had.
Hodor said only, "Hodor." That was all he ever said.
And still the direwolves howled. The guards on the walls muttered curses, hounds in the kennels barked
furiously, horses kicked at their stalls, the Walders shivered by their fire, and even Maester Luwin
complained of sleepless nights. Only Bran did not mind. Ser Rodrik had confined the wolves to the
godswood after Shaggydog bit Little Walder, but the stones of Winterfell played queer tricks with sound,
and sometimes it sounded as if they were in the yard right below Bran's window. Other times he would
have sworn they were up on the curtain walls, loping round like sentries. He wished that he could see
them.
He could see the comet hanging above the Guards Hall and the Bell Tower, and farther back the First
Keep, squat and round, its gargoyles black shapes against the bruised purple dusk. Once Bran had
known
every stone of those buildings, inside and out; he had climbed them all, scampering up walls as easily as


other boys ran down stairs. Their rooftops had been his secret places, and the crows atop the broken
tower his special friends.
And then he had fallen.
Bran did not remember falling, yet they said he had, so he supposed it must be true. He had almost died.
When he saw the weatherworn gargoyles atop the First Keep where it had happened, he got a queer
tight feeling in his belly. And now he could not climb, nor walk nor run nor swordfight, and the dreams
he'd dreamed of knighthood had soured in his head.
Summer had howled the day Bran had fallen, and for long after as he lay broken in his bed; Robb had
told him so before he went away to war. Summer had mourned for him, and Shaggydog and Grey Wind
had joined in his grief. And the night the bloody raven had brought word of their father's death, the
wolves had known that too. Bran had been in the maester's turret with Rickon talking of the children of
the forest when Summer and Shaggydog had drowned out Luwin with their howls.
Who are they mourning now? Had some enemy slain the King in the
North, who used to be his brother Robb? Had his bastard brother Jon
Snow fallen from the Wall? Had his mother died, or one of his sisters? Or
was this something else, as maester and septon and Old Nan seemed to
think?
If I were truly a direwolf, I would understand the song, he thought wistfully. In his wolf dreams, he could
race up the sides of mountains, jagged icy mountains taller than any tower, and stand at the summit
beneath the full moon with all the world below him, the way it used to be.
"Oooo," Bran cried tentatively. He cupped his hands around his mouth and lifted his head to the comet.
"Ooooooooooooooooooo, ahooooooooooooooo, " he howled. it sounded stupid, high and hollow and
quavering, a little boy's howl, not a wolf's. Yet Summer gave answer, his deep voice drowning out Bran's
thin one, and Shaggydog made it a chorus. Bran haroooed again. They howled together, last of their
pack.
The noise brought a guard to his door, Hayhead with the wen on his nose. He peered in, saw Bran
howling out the window, and said, "What's this, my prince?"
It made Bran feel queer when they called him prince, though he was Robb's heir, and Robb was King in
the North now. He turned his head to howl at the guard. "Oooooooo. Oo-oo-oooooooooooo. "
Hayhead screwed up his face. "Now you stop that there."
"0oo-0oo-0ooooo. 0oo-0oo-0oooooooooooooooo. "
The guardsman retreated. When he came back, Maester Luwin was with him, all in grey, his chain tight
about his neck. "Bran, those beasts make sufficient noise without your help." He crossed the room and
put his hand on the boy's brow. "The hour grows late, you ought to be fast asleep."
"I'm talking to the wolves." Bran brushed the hand away.


"Shall I have Hayhead carry you to your bed?"
"I can get to bed myself." Mikken had hammered a row of iron bars into the wall, so Bran could pull
himself about the room with his arms. It was slow and hard and it made his shoulders ache, but he hated
being carried. "Anyway, I don't have to sleep if I don't want to."
"All men must sleep, Bran. Even princes."
"When I sleep I turn into a wolf." Bran turned his face away and looked back out into the night. "Do
wolves dream?"
"All creatures dream, I think, yet not as men do."
"Do dead men dream?" Bran asked, thinking of his father. In the dark crypts below Winterfell, a
stonemason was chiseling out his father's likeness in granite.
"Some say yes, some no," the maester answered. "The dead themselves are silent on the matter."
"Do trees dream?"
"Trees? No . . ."
"They do," Bran said with sudden certainty. "They dream tree dreams. I dream of a tree sometimes. A
weirwood, like the one in the godswood. It calls to me. The wolf dreams are better. I smell things, and
sometimes I can taste the blood."
Maester Luwin tugged at his chain where it chafed his neck. "If you would only spend more time with the
other children-"
"I hate the other children," Bran said, meaning the Walders. "I commanded you to send them away."
Luwin grew stern. "The Freys are your lady mother's wards, sent here to be fostered at her express
command. It is not for you to expel them, nor is it kind. If we turned them out, where would they go?"
"Home. It's their fault you won't let me have Summer."
"The Frey boy did not ask to be attacked," the maester said, "no more than I did."
"That was Shaggydog." Rickon's big black wolf was so wild he even frightened Bran at times. "Summer
never bit anyone."
"Summer ripped out a man's throat in this very chamber, or have you forgotten? The truth is, those sweet
pups you and your brothers found in the snow have grown into dangerous beasts. The Frey boys are
wise to be wary of them."
"We should put the Walders in the godswood. They could play lord of the crossing all they want, and
Summer could sleep with me again. If I'm the prince, why won't you heed me? I wanted to ride Dancer,
but Alebelly wouldn't let me past the gate."
"And rightly so. The wolfswood is full of danger; your last ride should have taught you that. Would you


want some outlaw to take you captive and sell you to the Lannisters?"
"Summer would save me," Bran insisted stubbornly. "Princes should be allowed to sail the sea and hunt
boar in the wolfswood and joust with lances."
"Bran, child, why do you torment yourself so? One day you may do some of these things, but now you
are only a boy of eight."
"I'd sooner be a wolf. Then I could live in the wood and sleep when I wanted, and I could find Arya and
Sansa. I'd smell where they were and go save them, and when Robb went to battle I'd fight beside him
like Grey Wind. I'd tear out the Kingslayer's throat with my teeth, rip, and then the war would be over
and everyone would come back to Winterfell. If I was a wolf . . . " He howled.
"Ooo-ooo-oooooooooooo.
Luwin raised his voice. "A true prince would welcorne-"
"AAHOOOOOOO," Bran howled, louder. "AAH000000000000"
The maester surrendered. "As you will, child." With a look that was part grief and part disgust, he left the
bedchamber.
Howling lost its savor once Bran was alone. After a time he quieted. I did welcome them, he told
himself, resentful. I was the lord in Winterfell, a true lord, he can't say I wasn't. When the Walders had
arrived from the Twins, it had been Rickon who wanted them gone. A baby of four, he had screamed
that he wanted Mother and Father and Robb, not these strangers. It had been up to Bran to soothe him
and bid the Freys welcome. He had offered them meat and mead and a seat by the fire, and even
Maester Luwin had said afterward that he'd done well.
Only that was before the game.
The game was played with a log, a staff, a body of water, and a great deal of shouting. The water was
the most important, Walder and Walder assured Bran. You could use a plank or even a series of stones,
and a branch could be your staff. You didn't have to shout. But without water, there was no game. As
Maester Luwin and Ser Rodrik were not about to let the children go wandering off into the wolfswood in
search of a stream, they made do with one of the murky pools in the godswood. Walder and Walder had
never seen hot water bubbling from the ground before, but they both allowed how it would make the
game even better.
Both of them were called Walder Frey. Big Walder said there were
bunches of Walders at the Twins, all named after the boys' grandfather, Lord Walder Frey. "We have
our own names at Winterfell," Rickon told them haughtily when he heard that.
The way their game was played, you laid the log across the water, and one player stood in the middle
with the stick. He was the lord of the crossing, and when one of the other players came up, he had to
say, "I am the lord of the crossing, who goes there?" And the other player had to make up a speech
about who they were and why they should be allowed to cross. The lord could make them swear oaths
and answer questions. They didn't have to tell the truth, but the oaths were binding unless they said
"Maybaps," so the trick was to say "Mayhaps" so the lord of the crossing didn't notice. Then you could
try and knock the lord into the water and you got to be lord of the crossing, but only if you'd said
"Mayhaps." Otherwise you were out of the game. The lord got to knock anyone in the water anytime he


pleased, and he was the only one who got to use a stick.
In practice, the game seemed to come down to mostly shoving, hitting, and falling into the water, along
with a lot of loud arguments about whether or not someone had said "Mayhaps." Little Walder was lord
of the crossing more often than not.
He was Little Walder even though he was tall and stout, with a red face and a big round belly. Big
Walder was sharp-faced and skinny and half a foot shorter. "He's fifty-two days older than me," Little
Walder explained, "so he was bigger at first, but I grew faster."
"We're cousins, not brothers," added Big Walder, the little one. "I'm Walder son of Jammos. My father
was Lord Walder's son by his fourth wife. He's Walder son of Merrett. His grandmother was Lord
Walder's third wife, the Crakehall. He's ahead of me in the line of succession even though I'm older."
"Only by fifty-two days," Little Walder objected. "And neither of us will ever hold the Twins, stupid."
"I will," Big Walder declared. "We're not the only Walders either. Ser Stevron has a grandson, Black
Walder, he's fourth in line of succession, and there's Red Walder, Ser Emmon's son, and Bastard
Walder, who isn't in the line at all. He's called Walder Rivers not Walder Frey. Plus there's girls named
Walda."
"And Tyr. You always forget Tyr."
"He's Waltyr, not Walder," Big Walder said airily. "And he's after us, so he doesn't matter. Anyhow, I
never liked him."
Ser Rodrik decreed that they would share Jon Snow's old bedchamber, since Jon was in the Night's
Watch and never coming back. Bran hated that; it made him feel as if the Freys were trying to steal Jon's
place.
He had watched wistfully while the Walders contested with Turnip the cook's boy and Joseth's girls
Bandy and Shyra. The Walders had decreed that Bran should be the judge and decide whether or not
people had said "Maybaps," but as soon as they started playing they forgot all about him.
The shouts and splashes soon drew others: Palla the kennel girl, Cayn's boy Calon, TomToo whose
father Fat Tom had died with Bran's father at King's Landing. Before very long, every one of them was
soaked and muddy. Palla was brown from head to heel, with moss in her hair, breathless from laughter.
Bran had not heard so much laughing since the night the bloody raven came. If I had my legs, I'd knock
all of them into the water, he thought bitterly. No one would ever be lord of the crossing but me.
Finally Rickon came running into the godswood, Shaggydog at his heels. He watched Turnip and Little
Walder struggle for the stick until Turnip lost his footing and went in with a huge splash, arms waving.
Rickon yelled, "Me! Me now! I want to play!" Little Walder beckoned him on, and Shaggydog started to
follow. "No, Shaggy," his brother commanded. "Wolves can't play. You stay with Bran." And he did . . .
. . . until Little Walder had smacked Rickon with the stick, square across his belly. Before Bran could
blink, the black wolf was flying over the plank, there was blood in the water, the Walders were shrieking
red murder, Rickon sat in the mud laughing, and Hodor came lumbering in shouting "Hodor! Hodor!
Hodor!"
After that, oddly, Rickon decided he liked the Walders. They never played lord of the crossing again,


but they played other games-monsters and maidens, rats and cats, come-into-my-castle, all sorts of
things. With Rickon by their side, the Walders plundered the kitchens for pies and honeycombs, raced
round the walls, tossed bones to the pups in the kennels, and trained with wooden swords under Ser
Rodrik's sharp eye. Rickon even showed them the deep vaults under the earth where the stonemason
was carving father's tomb. "You had no right!" Bran screamed at his brother when he heard. "That was
our place, a Stark place!" But Rickon never cared.
The door to his bedchamber opened. Maester Luwin was carrying a green jar, and this time Osha and
Hayhead came with him. "I've made you a sleeping draught, Bran."
Osha scooped him up in her bony arms. She was very tall for a woman, and wiry strong. She bore him
effortlessly to his bed.
"This will give you dreamless sleep," Maester Luwin said as he pulled the stopper from the jar. "Sweet,
dreamless sleep."
"It will?" Bran said, wanting to believe.
"Yes. Drink."
Bran drank. The potion was thick and chalky, but there was honey in it so it went down easy.
"Come the morn, you'll feel better." Luwin gave Bran a smile and a pat as he took his leave.
Osha lingered behind. "Is it the wolf dreams again?"
Bran nodded.
"You should not fight so hard, boy. I see you talking to the heart tree. Might be the gods are trying to
talk back."
"The gods?" he murmured, drowsy already. Osha's face grew blurry and grey. Sweet, dreamless sleep,
Bran thought.
Yet when the darkness closed over him, he found himself in the godswood, moving silently beneath
green-grey sentinels and gnarled oaks as old as time. I am walking, he thought, exulting. Part of him knew
that it was only a dream, but even the dream of walking was better than the truth of his bedchamber,
walls and ceiling and door.
It was dark amongst the trees, but the comet lit his way, and his feet were sure. He was moving on four
good legs, strong and swift, and he could feel the ground underfoot, the soft crackling of fallen leaves,
thick roots and hard stones, the deep layers of humus. It was a good feeling.
The smells filled his head, alive and intoxicating; the green muddy stink of the hot pools, the perfume of
rich rotting earth beneath his paws, the squirrels in the oaks. The scent of squirrel made him remember
the taste of hot blood and the way the bones would crack between his teeth. Slaver filled his mouth. He
had eaten no more than half a day past, but there was no joy in dead meat, even deer. He could hear the
squirrels chittering and rustling above him, safe among their leaves, but they knew better than to come
down to where his brother and he were prowling.
He could smell his brother too, a familiar scent, strong and earthy, his scent as black as his coat. His


brother was loping around the walls, full of fury. Round and round he went, night after day after night,
tireless, searching . . . for prey, for a way out, for his mother, his littermates, his pack . . . searching,
searching, and never finding.
Behind the trees the walls rose, piles of dead man-rock that loomed all about this speck of living wood.
Speckled grey they rose, and moss-spotted, yet thick and strong and higher than any wolf could hope to
leap. Cold iron and splintery wood closed off the only holes through the piled stones that hemmed them
in. His brother would stop at every hole and bare his fangs in rage, but the ways stayed closed.
He had done the same the first night, and learned that it was no good. Snarls would open no paths here.
Circling the walls would not push
them back. Lifting a leg and marking the trees would keep no men away. The world had tightened
around them, but beyond the walled wood still stood the great grey caves of man-rock. Winterfell, he
remembered, the sound coming to him suddenly. Beyond its sky-tall man-cliffs the true world was calling,
and he knew he must answer or die.
CHAPTER 5
ARYA
They traveled dawn to dusk, past woods and orchards and neatly tended fields, through small villages,
crowded market towns, and stout holdfasts. Come dark, they would make camp and eat by the light of
the Red Sword. The men took turns standing watch. Arya would glimpse firelight flickering through the
trees from the camps of other travelers. There seemed to be more camps every night, and more traffic on
the kingsroad by day.
Morn, noon, and night they came, old folks and little children, big men and small ones, barefoot girls and
women with babes at their breasts. Some drove farm wagons or bumped along in the back of ox carts.
More rode: draft horses, ponies, mules, donkeys, anything that would walk or run or roll. One woman
led a milk cow with a little girl on its back. Arya saw a smith pushing a wheelbarrow with his tools inside,
hammers and tongs and even an anvil, and a little while later a different man with a different wheelbarrow,
only inside this one were two babies in a blanket. Most came on foot, with their goods on their shoulders
and weary, wary looks upon their faces. They walked south, toward the city, toward King's Landing,
and only one in a hundred spared so much as a word for Yoren and his charges, traveling north. She
wondered why no one else was going the same way as them.
Many of the travelers were armed; Arya saw daggers and dirks, scythes and axes, and here and there a
sword. Some had made clubs from tree limbs, or carved knobby staffs. They fingered their weapons and
gave
lingering looks at the wagons as they rolled by, yet in the end they let the column pass. Thirty was too
many, no matter what they had in those wagons.
Look with your eyes, Syrio had said, listen with your ears.
One day a madwoman began to scream at them from the side of the road. "Fools! They'll kill you,


fools!" She was scarecrow thin, with hollow eyes and bloody feet.
The next morning, a sleek merchant on a grey mare reined up by Yoren and offered to buy his wagons
and everything in them for a quarter of their worth. "It's war, they'll take what they want, you'll do better
selling to me, my friend." Yoren turned away with a twist of his crooked shoulders, and spat.
Arya noticed the first grave that same day; a small mound beside the road, dug for a child. A crystal had
been set in the soft earth, and Lommy wanted to take it until the Bull told him he'd better leave the dead
alone. A few leagues farther on, Praed pointed out more graves, a whole row freshly dug. After that, a
day hardly passed without one.
One time Arya woke in the dark, frightened for no reason she could name. Above, the Red Sword
shared the sky with half a thousand stars. The night seemed oddly quiet to her, though she could hear
Yoren's muttered snores, the crackle of the fire, even the muffled stirrings of the donkeys. Yet somehow
it felt as though the world were holding its breath, and the silence made her shiver. She went back to
sleep clutching Needle.
Come morning, when Praed did not awaken, Arya realized that it had been his coughing she had missed.
They dug a grave of their own then, burying the sellsword where he'd slept. Yoren stripped him of his
valuables before they threw the dirt on him. One man claimed his boots, another his dagger. His mail shirt
and helm were parceled out. His longsword Yoren handed to the Bull. "Arms like yours, might be you
can learn to use this," he told him. A boy called Tarber tossed a handful of acorns on top of Praed's
body, so an oak might grow to mark his place.
That evening they stopped in a village at an ivy-covered inn. Yoren counted the coins in his purse and
decided they had enough for a hot meal. "We'll sleep outside, same as ever, but they got a bathhouse
here, if any of you feels the need o' hot water and a lick o' soap."
Arya did not dare, even though she smelled as bad as Yoren by now, all sour and stinky. Some of the
creatures living in her clothes had come all the way from Flea Bottom with her; it didn't seem right to
drown them. Tarber and Hot Pie and the Bull joined the line of men headed for the tubs. Others settled
down in front of the bathhouse. The rest crowded into the common room. Yoren even sent Lommy out
with tankards for
the three in fetters, who'd been left chained up in the back of their wagon.
Washed and unwashed alike supped on hot pork pies and baked apples. The innkeeper gave them a
round of beer on the house. "I had a brother took the black, years ago. Serving boy, clever, but one day
he got seen filching pepper from m'lord's table. He liked the taste of it, is all. just a pinch o' pepper, but
Ser Malcolm was a hard man. You get pepper on the Wall?" When Yoren shook his head, the man
sighed. "Shame. Lync loved that pepper."
Arya sipped at her tankard cautiously, between spoonfuls of pie still warm from the oven. Her father
sometimes let them have a cup of beer, she remembered. Sansa used to make a face at the taste and say
that wine was ever so much finer, but Arya had liked it well enough. it made her sad to think of Sansa
and her father.
The inn was full of people moving south, and the common room erupted in scorn when Yoren said they
were traveling the other way. "You'll be back soon enough," the innkeeper vowed. "There's no going
north. Half the fields are burnt, and what folks are left are walled up inside their holdfasts. One bunch
rides off at dawn and another one shows up by dusk."


"That's nothing to us," Yoren insisted stubbornly. "Tully or Lannister, makes no matter. The Watch takes
no part."
Lord Tully is my grandfather, Arya thought. It mattered to her, but she chewed her lip and kept quiet,
listening.
"It's more than Lannister and Tully," the innkeeper said. "There's wild men down from the Mountains of
the Moon, try telling them you take no part. And the Starks are in it too, the young lord's come down,
the dead Hand's son . . ."
Arya sat up straight, straining to hear. Did he mean Robb?
"I heard the boy rides to battle on a wolf," said a yellow-haired man with a tankard in his hand.
"Fool's talk." Yoren spat.
"The man I heard it from, he saw it himself. A wolf big as a horse, he swore."
"Swearing don't make it true, Hod," the innkeeper said. "You keep swearing you'll pay what you owe
me, and I've yet to see a copper." The common room erupted in laughter, and the man with the yellow
hair turned red.
"It's been a bad year for wolves," volunteered a sallow man in a travelstained green cloak. "Around the
Gods Eye, the packs have grown bolder'n anyone can remember. Sheep, cows, dogs, makes no matter,
they kill as they like, and they got no fear of men. It's worth your life to go into those woods by night."
"Ah, that's more tales, and no more true than the other."
"I heard the same thing from my cousin, and she's not the sort to lie," an old woman said. "She says
there's this great pack, hundreds of them, mankillers. The one that leads them is a she-wolf, a bitch from
the seventh hell."
A she-wolf. Arya sloshed her beer, wondering. Was the Gods Eye near the Trident? She wished she
had a map. It had been near the Trident that she'd left Nymeria. She hadn't wanted to, but Jory said they
had no choice, that if the wolf came back with them she'd be killed for biting Joffrey, even though he'd
deserved it. They'd had to shout and scream and throw stones, and it wasn't until a few of Arya's stones
struck home that the direwolf had finally stopped following them. She probably wouldn't even know me
now, Arya thought. Or if she did, she'd hate me.
The man in the green cloak said, "I heard how this hellbitch walked into a village one day . . . a market
day, people everywhere, and she walks in bold as you please and tears a baby from his mother's arms.
When the tale reached Lord Mooton, him and his sons swore they'd put an end to her. They tracked her
to her lair with a pack of wolfhounds, and barely escaped with their skins. Not one of those dogs came
back, not one."
"That's just a story," Arya blurted out before she could stop herself. "Wolves don't eat babies."
"And what would you know about it, lad?" asked the man in the green cloak.
Before she could think of an answer, Yoren had her by the arm. "The boy's greensick on beer, that's all


it is."
"No I'm not. They don't eat babies . . ."
"Outside, boy . . . and see that you stay there until you learn to shut your mouth when men are talking."
He gave her a stiff shove, toward the side door that led back to the stables. "Go on now. See that the
stableboy has watered our horses."
Arya went outside, stiff with fury. "They don't," she muttered, kicking at a rock as she stalked off. It
went rolling and fetched up under the wagons.
"Boy," a friendly voice called out. "Lovely boy."
One of the men in irons was talking to her. Warily, Arya approached the wagon, one hand on Needle's
hilt.
The prisoner lifted an empty tankard, his chains rattling. "A man could use another taste of beer. A man
has a thirst, wearing these heavy bracelets." He was the youngest of the three, slender, fine-featured,
always smiling. His hair was red on one side and white on the other, all matted and filthy from cage and
travel. "A man could use a bath too," he
said, when he saw the way Arya was looking at him. "A boy could make a friend."
"I have friends," Arya said.
"None I can see," said the one without a nose. He was squat and thick, with huge hands. Black hair
covered his arms and legs and chest, even his back. He reminded Arya of a drawing she had once seen
in a book, of an ape from the Summer Isles. The hole in his face made it hard to look at him for long.
The bald one opened his mouth and hissed like some immense white lizard. When Arya flinched back,
startled, he opened his mouth wide and waggled his tongue at her, only it was more a stump than a
tongue. "Stop that," she blurted.
"A man does not choose his companions in the black cells," the handsome one with the red-and-white
hair said. Something about the way he talked reminded her of Syrio; it was the same, yet different too.
"These two, they have no courtesy. A man must ask forgiveness. You are called Arry, is that not so?"
"Lumpyhead," said the noseless one. "Lumpyhead Lumpyface Stickboy. Have a care, Lorath, he'll hit
you with his stick."
"A man must be ashamed of the company he keeps, Arry," the handsome one said. "This man has the
honor to be Jaqen Hghar, once of the Free City of Lorath. Would that he were home. This man's ill-bred
companions in captivity are named Rorge"-he waved his tankard at the noseless man-"and Biter." Biter
hissed at her again, displaying a mouthful of yellowed teeth filed into points. "A man must have some
name, is that not so? Biter cannot speak and Biter cannot write, yet his teeth are very sharp, so a man
calls him Biter and he smiles. Are you charmed?"
Arya backed away from the wagon. "No." They can't hurt me, she told herself, they're all chained up.
He turned his tankard upside down. "A man must weep."


Rorge, the noseless one, flung his drinking cup at her with a curse. His manacles made him clumsy, yet
even so he would have sent the heavy pewter tankard crashing into her head if Arya hadn't leapt aside.
"You get us some beer, pimple. Now!"
"You shut your mouth!" Arya tried to think what Syrio would have done. She drew her wooden practice
sword.
"Come closer," Rorge said, "and I'll shove that stick up your bunghole and fuck you bloody."
Fear cuts deeper than swords. Arya made herself approach the wagon. Every step was harder than the
one before. Fierce as a wolverine, calm as still water. The words sang in her head. Syrio would not have
been afraid. She was almost close enough to touch the wheel when Biter
lurched to his feet and grabbed for her, his irons clanking and rattling. The manacles brought his hands
up short, half a foot from her face. He hissed.
She hit him. Hard, right between his little eyes.
Screaming, Biter reeled back, and then threw all his weight against his chains. The links slithered and
turned and grew taut, and Arya heard the creak of old dry wood as the great iron rings strained against
the floorboards of the wagon. Huge pale hands groped for her while veins bulged along Biter's arms, but
the bonds held, and finally the man collapsed backward. Blood ran from the weeping sores on his
cheeks.
"A boy has more courage than sense," the one who had named himself Jaqen H'ghar observed.
Arya edged backward away from the wagon. When she felt the hand on her shoulder, she whirled,
bringing up her stick sword again, but it was only the Bull. "What are you doing?"
He raised his hands defensively. "Yoren said none of us should go near those three."
"They don't scare me," Arya said.
"Then you're stupid. They scare me." The Bull's hand fell to the hilt of his sword, and Rorge began to
laugh. "Let's get away from them."
Arya scuffed at the ground with her foot, but she let the Bull lead her around to the front of the inn.
Rorge's laughter and Biter's hissing followed them. "Want to fight?" she asked the Bull. She wanted to hit
something.
He blinked at her, startled. Strands of thick black hair, still wet from the bathhouse, fell across his deep
blue eyes. "I'd hurt you."
"You would not."
"You don't know how strong I am."
"You don't know how quick I am."
"You're asking for it, Arry." He drew Praed's longsword. "This is cheap steel, but it's a real sword."


Arya unsheathed Needle. "This is good steel, so it's realer than yours."
The Bull shook his head. "Promise not to cry if I cut you?"
"I'll promise if you will." She turned sideways, into her water dancer's stance, but the Bull did not move.
He was looking at something behind her. "What's wrong?"
"Gold cloaks." His face closed up tight.
It couldn't be, Arya thought, but when she glanced back, they were riding up the kingsroad, six in the
black ringmail and golden cloaks of the City Watch. One was an officer; he wore a black enamel
breastplate ornamented with four golden disks. They drew up in front of the inn.
Look with your eyes, Syrio's voice seemed to whisper. Her eyes saw white lather under their saddles;
the horses had been ridden long and hard. Calm as still water, she took the Bull by the arm and drew him
back behind a tall flowering hedge.
"What is it?" he asked. "What are you doing? Let go."
"Quiet as a shadow," she whispered, pulling him down.
Some of Yoren's other charges were sitting in front of the bathhouse, waiting their turn at a tub. "You
men," one of the gold cloaks shouted. "You the ones left to take the black?"
"We might be," came the cautious answer.
"We'd rather join you boys," old Reysen said. "We hear it's cold on that Wall."
The gold cloak officer dismounted. "I have a warrant for a certain boy-"
Yoren stepped out of the inn, fingering his tangled black beard. "Who is it wants this boy?"
The other gold cloaks were dismounting to stand beside their horses. "Why are we hiding?" the Bull
whispered.
"It's me they want," Arya whispered back. His ear smelled of soap. "You be quiet."
"The queen wants him, old man, not that it's your concern," the officer said, drawing a ribbon from his
belt. "Here, Her Grace's seal and warrant."
Behind the hedge, the Bull shook his head doubtfully. "Why would the queen want you, Arry?"
She punched his shoulder. "Be quiet!"
Yoren fingered the warrant ribbon with its blob of golden wax. "Pretty." He spit. "Thing is, the boy's in
the Night's Watch now. What he done back in the city don't mean piss-all."
"The queen's not interested in your views, old man, and neither am I," the officer said. "I'll have the boy."
Arya thought about running, but she knew she wouldn't get far on her donkey when the gold cloaks had
horses. And she was so tired of running. She'd run when Ser Meryn came for her, and again when they


killed her father. If she was a real water dancer, she would go out there with Needle and kill all of them,
and never run from anyone ever again.
"You'll have no one," Yoren said stubbornly. "There's laws on such things."
The gold cloak drew a shortsword. "Here's your law."
Yoren looked at the blade. "That's no law, just a sword. Happens I got one too."
The officer smiled. "Old fool. I have five men with me."
Yoren spat. "Happens I got thirty."
The gold cloak laughed. "This lot?" said a big lout with a broken nose. "Who's first?" he shouted,
showing his steel.
Tarber plucked a pitchfork out of a bale of hay. "I am."
"No, I am," called Cutjack, the plump stonemason, pulling his hammer off the leather apron he always
wore.
"Me." Kurz came up off the ground with his skinning knife in hand.
"Me and him." Koss strung his longbow.
"All of us," said Reysen, snatching up the tall hardwood walking staff he carried.
Dobber stepped naked out of the bathhouse with his clothes in a bundle, saw what was happening, and
dropped everything but his dagger. "Is it a fight?" he asked.
"I guess," said Hot Pie, scrambling on all fours for a big rock to throw. Arya could not believe what she
was seeing. She hated Hot Pie! Why would he risk himself for her?
The one with the broken nose still thought it was funny. "You girls put away them rocks and sticks
before you get spanked. None of you knows what end of a sword to hold."
"I do!" Arya wouldn't let them die for her like Syrio. She wouldn't! Shoving through the hedge with
Needle in hand, she slid into a water dancer's stance.
Broken Nose guffawed. The officer looked her up and down. "Put the blade away, little girl, no one
wants to hurt you."
"I'm not a girl!" she yelled, furious. What was wrong with them? They rode all this way for her and here
she was and they were just smiling at her. "I'm the one you want."
"He's the one we want." The officer jabbed his shortsword toward the Bull, who'd come forward to
stand beside her, Praed's cheap steel in his hand.
But it was a mistake to take his eyes off Yoren, even for an instant. Quick as that, the black brother's
sword was pressed to the apple of the officer's throat. "Neither's the one you get, less you want me to
see if your apple's ripe yet. I got me ten, fifteen more brothers in that inn, if you still need convincing. I


was you, I'd let loose of that gutcutter, spread my cheeks over that fat little horse, and gallop on back to
the city." He spat, and poked harder with the point of his sword. "Now."
The officer's fingers uncurled. His sword fell in the dust.
"We'll just keep that," Yoren said. "Good steel's always needed on the Wall."
"As you say. For now. Men." The gold cloaks sheathed and mounted up. "You'd best scamper up to
that Wall of yours in a hurry, old man.
The next time I catch you, I believe I'll have your head to go with the bastard boy's."
"Better men than you have tried." Yoren slapped the rump of the officer's horse with the flat of his sword
and sent him reeling off down the kingsroad. His men followed.
When they were out of sight, Hot Pie began to whoop, but Yoren looked angrier than ever. "Fool! You
think he's done with us? Next time he won't prance up and hand me no damn ribbon. Get the rest out o'
them baths, we need to be moving. Ride all night, maybe we can stay ahead o' them for a bit." He
scooped up the shortsword the officer had dropped. "Who wants this?"
"Me!" Hot Pie yelled.
"Don't be using it on Arry." He handed the boy the sword, hilt first, and walked over to Arya, but it was
the Bull he spoke to. "Queen wants you bad, boy."
Arya was lost. "Why should she want him?"
The Bull scowled at her. "Why should she want you? You're nothing but a little gutter rat!"
"Well, you're nothing but a bastard boy!" Or maybe he was only pretending to be a bastard boy.
"What's your true name?"
"Gendry," he said, like he wasn't quite sure.
"Don't see why no one wants neither o' you," Yoren said, "but they can't have you regardless. You ride
them two coursers. First sight of a gold cloak, make for the Wall like a dragon's on your tail. The rest o'
us don't mean spit to them."
"Except for you," Arya pointed out. "That man said he'd take your head too."
"Well, as to that," Yoren said, "if he can get it off my shoulders, he's welcome to it."
CHAPTER 6
JON


"Sam?" Jon called softly.
The air smelled of paper and dust and years. Before him, tall wooden shelves rose up into dimness,
crammed with leatherbound books and bins of ancient scrolls. A faint yellow glow filtered through the
stacks from some hidden lamp. Jon blew out the taper he carried, preferring not to risk an open flame
amidst so much old dry paper. Instead he followed the light, wending his way down the narrow aisles
beneath barrel-vaulted ceilings. All in black, he was a shadow among shadows, dark of hair, long of face,
grey of eye. Black moleskin gloves covered his hands; the right because it was burned, the left because a
man felt half a fool wearing only one glove.
Samwell Tarly sat hunched over a table in a niche carved into the stone of the wall. The glow came from
the lamp hung over his head. He looked up at the sound of Jon's steps.
"Have you been here all night?"
"Have I?" Sam looked startled.
"You didn't break your fast with us, and your bed hadn't been slept in." Rast suggested that maybe Sam
had deserted, but Jon never believed it. Desertion required its own sort of courage, and Sam had little
enough of that.
"Is it morning? Down here there's no way to know."
"Sam, you're a sweet fool," Jon said. "You'll miss that bed when we're sleeping on the cold hard ground,
I promise you."
Sam yawned. "Maester Aemon sent me to find maps for the Lord Commander. I never thought . . . Jon,
the books, have you ever seen their like? There are thousands!"
He gazed about him. "The library at Winterfell has more than a hundred. Did you find the maps?"
"Oh, yes." Sam's hand swept over the table, fingers plump as sausages indicating the clutter of books
and scrolls before him. "A dozen, at the least." He unfolded a square of parchment. "The paint has faded,
but you can see where the mapmaker marked the sites of wildling villages, and there's another book . . .
where is it now? I was reading it a moment ago." He shoved some scrolls aside to reveal a dusty volume
bound in rotted leather. "This," he said reverently, "is the account of a journey from the Shadow Tower
all the way to Lorn Point on the Frozen Shore, written by a ranger named Redwyn. It's not dated, but he
mentions a Dorren Stark as King in the North, so it must be from before the Conquest. Jon, they fought
giants! Redwyn even traded with the children of the forest, it's all here." Ever so delicately, he turned
pages with a finger. "He drew maps as well, see . . ."
"Maybe you could write an account of our ranging, Sam."
He'd meant to sound encouraging, but it was the wrong thing to say. The last thing Sam needed was to
be reminded of what faced them on the morrow. He shuffled the scrolls about aimlessly. "There's more
maps. If I had time to search . . . everything's a jumble. I could set it all to order, though; I know I could,
but it would take time . . . well, years, in truth."
"Mormont wanted those maps a little sooner than that." Jon plucked a scroll from a bin, blew off the
worst of the dust. A corner flaked off between his fingers as he unrolled it. "Look, this one is crumbling,"


he said, frowning over the faded script.
"Be gentle." Sam came around the table and took the scroll from his hand, holding it as if it were a
wounded animal. "The important books used to be copied over when they needed them. Some of the
oldest have been copied half a hundred times, probably."
"Well, don't bother copying that one. Twenty-three barrels of pickled cod, eighteen jars of fish oil, a
cask of salt . . ."
"An inventory," Sam said, "or perhaps a bill of sale."
"Who cares how much pickled cod they ate six hundred years ago?" Jon wondered.
"I would." Sam carefully replaced the scroll in the bin from which Jon had plucked it. "You can learn so
much from ledgers like that, truly you can. it can tell you how many men were in the Night's Watch then,
how they lived, what they ate . . ."
"They ate food," said Jon, "and they lived as we live."
"You'd be surprised. This vault is a treasure, Jon."
"If you say so." Jon was doubtful. Treasure meant gold, silver, and jewels, not dust, spiders, and rotting
leather.
"I do," the fat boy blurted. He was older than Jon, a man grown by law, but it was hard to think of him
as anything but a boy. "I found drawings of the faces in the trees, and a book about the tongue of the
children of the forest . . . works that even the Citadel doesn't have, scrolls from old Valyria, counts of the
seasons written by maesters dead a thousand years . . ."
"The books will still be here when we return."
"if we return . . ."
"The Old Bear is taking two hundred seasoned men, three-quarters of them rangers. Qhorin Halfhand
will be bringing another hundred brothers from the Shadow Tower. You'll be as safe as if you were back
in your lord father's castle at Horn Hill."
Samwell Tarly managed a sad little smile. "I was never very safe in my father's castle either."
The gods play cruel jests, Jon thought. Pyp and Toad, all a lather to be a part of the great ranging, were
to remain at Castle Black. it was Samwell Tarly, the self-proclaimed coward, grossly fat, timid, and near
as bad a rider as he was with a sword, who must face the haunted forest. The Old Bear was taking two
cages of ravens, so they might send back word as they went. Maester Aemon was blind and far too frail
to ride with them, so his steward must go in his place. "We need you for the ravens, Sam. And someone
has to help me keep Grenn humble."
Sam's chins quivered. "You could care for the ravens, or Grenn could, or anyone," he said with a thin
edge of desperation in his voice. "I could show you how. You know your letters too, you could write
down Lord Mormont's messages as well as I"
"I'm the Old Bear's steward. I'll need to squire for him, tend his horse, set up his tent; I won't have time


to watch over birds as well. Sam, you said the words. You're a brother of the Night's Watch now."
"A brother of the Night's Watch shouldn't be so scared."
"We're all scared. We'd be fools if we weren't." Too many rangers had been lost the past two years,
even Benjen Stark, Jon's uncle. They had found two of his uncle's men in the wood, slain, but the corpses
had risen in the chill of night. Jon's burnt fingers twitched as he remembered. He still saw the wight in his
dreams, dead Othor with the burning blue eyes and the cold black hands, but that was the last thing Sam
needed to be reminded of. "There's no shame in fear, my father told me, what matters is how we face it.
Come, I'll help you gather up the maps."
Sam nodded unhappily. The shelves were so closely spaced that they had to walk single file as they left.
The vault opened onto one of the
tunnels the brothers called the wormwalks, winding subterranean passages that linked the keeps and
towers of Castle Black under the earth. In summer the wormwalks were seldom used, save by rats and
other vermin, but winter was a different matter. When the snows drifted forty and fifty feet high and the
ice winds came howling out of the north, the tunnels were all that held Castle Black together.
Soon, Jon thought as they climbed. He'd seen the harbinger that had come to Maester Aemon with
word of summer's end, the great raven of the Citadel, white and silent as Ghost. He had seen a winter
once, when he was very young, but everyone agreed that it had been a short one, and mild. This one
would be different. He could feel it in his bones.
The steep stone steps had Sam puffing like a blacksmith's bellows by the time they reached the surface.
They emerged into a brisk wind that made Jon's cloak swirl and snap. Ghost was stretched out asleep
beneath the wattle-and-daub wall of the granary, but he woke when Jon appeared, bushy white tail held
stiffly upright as he trotted to them.
Sam squinted up at the Wall. It loomed above them, an icy cliff seven hundred feet high. Sometimes it
seemed to Jon almost a living thing, with moods of its own. The color of the ice was wont to change with
every shift of the light. Now it was the deep blue of frozen rivers, now the dirty white of old snow, and
when a cloud passed before the sun it darkened to the pale grey of pitted stone. The Wall stretched east
and west as far as the eye could see, so huge that it shrunk the timbered keeps and stone towers of the
castle to insignificance. it was the end of the world.
And we are going beyond it.
The morning sky was streaked by thin grey clouds, but the pale red line was there behind them. The
black brothers had dubbed the wanderer Mormont's Torch, saying (only half in jest) that the gods must
have sent it to light the old man's way through the haunted forest.
"The comet's so bright you can see it by day now," Sam said, shading his eyes with a fistful of books.
"Never mind about comets, it's maps the Old Bear wants."
Ghost loped ahead of them. The grounds seemed deserted this morning, with so many rangers off at the
brothel in Mole's Town, digging for buried treasure and drinking themselves blind. Grenn had gone with
them. Pyp and Halder and Toad had offered to buy him his first woman to celebrate his first ranging.
They'd wanted Jon and Sam to come as well, but Sam was almost as frightened of whores as he was of
the haunted forest, and Jon had wanted no part of it. "Do what you want," he told Toad, "I took a vow."


As they passed the sept, he heard voices raised in song. Some men want whores on the eve of battle,
and some want gods. Jon wondered
who felt better afterward. The sept tempted him no more than the brothel; his own gods kept their
temples in the wild places, where the weirwoods spread their bone-white branches. The Seven have no
power beyond the Wall, he thought, but my gods will be waiting.
Outside the armory, Ser Endrew Tarth was working with some raw recruits. They'd come in last night
with Conwy, one of the wandering crows who roamed the Seven Kingdoms collecting men for the Wall.
This new crop consisted of a greybeard leaning on a staff, two blond boys with the look of brothers, a
foppish youth in soiled satin, a raggy man with a clubfoot, and some grinning loon who must have fancied
himself a warrior. Ser Endrew was showing him the error of that presumption. He was a gentler
master-at-arms than Ser Alliser Thorne had been, but his lessons would still raise bruises. Sam winced at
every blow, but Jon Snow watched the swordplay closely.
"What do you make of them, Snow?" Donal Noye stood in the door of his armory, bare-chested under
a leather apron, the stump of his left arm uncovered for once. With his big gut and barrel chest, his flat
nose and bristly black jaw, Noyc did not make a pretty sight, but he was a welcome one nonetheless.
The armorer had proved himself a good friend.
"They smell of summer," Jon said as Ser Endrew bullrushed his foe and knocked him sprawling. "Where
did Conwy find them?"
"A lord's dungeon near Gulltown," the smith replied. "A brigand, a barber, a beggar, two orphans, and a
boy whore. With such do we defend the realms of men."
"They'll do." Jon gave Sam a private smile. "We did."
Noye drew him closer. "You've heard these tidings of your brother?"
"Last night." Conwy and his charges had brought the news north with them, and the talk in the common
room had been of little else. Jon was still not certain how he felt about it. Robb a king? The brother he'd
played with, fought with, shared his first cup of wine with? But not mother's milk, no. So now Robb will
sip summerwine from jeweled goblets, while I'm kneeling beside some stream sucking snowmelt from
cupped hands. "Robb will make a good king," he said loyally.
"Will he now?" The smith eyed him frankly. "I hope that's so, boy, but once I might have said the same
of Robert."
"They say you forged his warhammer," Jon remembered.
"Aye. I was his man, a Baratheon man, smith and armorer at Storm's End until I lost the arm. I'm old
enough to remember Lord Steffon before the sea took him, and I knew those three sons of his since they
got their names. I tell you this-Robert was never the same after he put on that crown. Some men are like
swords, made for fighting. Hang them up and they go to rust."
"And his brothers?" Jon asked.
The armorer considered that a moment. "Robert was the true steel. Stannis is pure iron, black and hard
and strong, yes, but brittle, the way iron gets. He'll break before he bends. And Renly, that one, he's


copper, bright and shiny, pretty to look at but not worth all that much at the end of the day."
And what metal is Robb? Jon did not ask. Noye was a Baratheon man; likely he thought Joffrey the
lawful king and Robb a traitor. Among the brotherhood of the Night's Watch, there was an unspoken
pact never to probe too deeply into such matters. Men came to the Wall from all of the Seven
Kingdoms, and old loves and loyalties were not easily forgotten, no matter how many oaths a man swore
. . . as Jon himself had good reason to know. Even Sam-his father's House was sworn to Highgarden,
whose Lord Tyrell supported King Renly. Best not to talk of such things. The Night's Watch took no
sides. "Lord Mormont awaits us," Jon said.
"I won't keep you from the Old Bear." Noye clapped him on the shoulder and smiled. "May the gods go
with you on the morrow, Snow. You bring back that uncle of yours, you hear?"
"We will," Jon promised him.
Lord Commander Mormont had taken up residence in the King's Tower after the fire had gutted his
own. Jon left Ghost with the guards outside the door. "More stairs," said Sam miserably as they started
up. "I hate stairs."
"Well, that's one thing we won't face in the wood."
When they entered the solar, the raven spied them at once. "Snow!" the bird shrieked. Mormont broke
off his conversation. "Took you long enough with those maps." He pushed the remains of breakfast out of
the way to make room on the table. "Put them here. I'll have a look at them later."
Thoren Smallwood, a sinewy ranger with a weak chin and a weaker mouth hidden under a thin scraggle
of beard, gave Jon and Sam a cool look. He had been one of Alliser Thorne's henchmen, and had no
love for either of them. "The Lord Commander's place is at Castle Black, lording and commanding," he
told Mormont, ignoring the newcomers, "it seems to me."
The raven flapped big black wings. "Me, me, me."
"If you are ever Lord Commander, you may do as you please," Mormont told the ranger, "but it seems
to me that I have not died yet, nor have the brothers put you in my place."
"I'm First Ranger now, with Ben Stark lost and Ser Jaremy killed," Smallwood said stubbornly. "The
command should be mine."
Mormont would have none of it. "I sent out Ben Stark, and Ser Wayrnar before him. I do not mean to
send you after them and sit wondering how long I must wait before I give you up for lost as well." He
pointed. "And Stark remains First Ranger until we know for a certainty that he is dead. Should that day
come, it will be me who names his successor, not you. Now stop wasting my time. We ride at first light,
or have you forgotten?"
Smallwood pushed to his feet. "As my lord commands." On the way out, he frowned at Jon, as if it were
somehow his fault.
"First Ranger!" The Old Bear's eyes lighted on Sam. "I'd sooner name you First Ranger. He has the
effrontery to tell me to my face that I'm too old to ride with him. Do I look old to you, boy?" The hair that
had retreated from Mormont's spotted scalp had regrouped beneath his chin in a shaggy grey beard that


covered much of his chest. He thumped it hard. "Do I look frail?"
Sam opened his mouth, gave a little squeak. The Old Bear terrified him. "No, my lord," Jon offered
quickly. "You look strong as a . . . a . . .
"Don't cozen me, Snow, you know I won't have it. Let me have a look at these maps." Mormont pawed
through them brusquely, giving each no more than a glance and a grunt. "Was this all you could find?"
"I . . . m-m-my lord," Sam stammered, "there . . . there were more, b-b-but . . . the dis-disorder . . ."
"These are old," Mormont complained, and his raven echoed him with a sharp cry of "Old, old."
"The villages may come and go, but the hills and rivers will be in the same places," Jon pointed out.
"True enough. Have you chosen your ravens yet, Tarly?"
"M-m-maester Aemon m-means to p-pick them come evenfall, after the f-f-feeding."
"I'll have his best. Smart birds, and strong."
"Strong," his own bird said, preening. "Strong, strong."
"If it happens that we're all butchered out there, I mean for my successor to know where and how we
died."
Talk of butchery reduced Samwell Tarly to speechlessness. Mormont leaned forward. "Tarly, when I
was a lad half your age, my lady mother told me that if I stood about with my mouth open, a weasel was
like to mistake it for his lair and run down my throat. If you have something to say, say it. Otherwise,
beware of weasels." He waved a brusque dismissal. "Off with you, I'm too busy for folly. No doubt the
maester has some work you can do."
Sam swallowed, stepped back, and scurried out so quickly he almost tripped over the rushes.
"Is that boy as big a fool as he seems?" the Lord Commander asked when he'd gone. "Fool," the raven
complained. Mormont did not wait for Jon to answer. "His lord father stands high in King Renly's
councils,
and I had half a notion to dispatch him . . . no, best not. Renly is not like to heed a quaking fat boy. I'll
send Ser Arnell. He's a deal steadier, and his mother was one of the green-apple Fossoways."
"If it please my lord, what would you have of King Renly?"
"The same things I'd have of all of them, lad. Men, horses, swords, armor, grain, cheese, wine, wool,
nails . . . the Night's Watch is not proud, we take what is offered." His fingers drummed against the
roughhewn planks of the table. "If the winds have been kind, Ser Alliser should reach King's Landing by
the turn of the moon, but whether this boy Joffrey will pay him any heed, I do not know. House Lannister
has never been a friend to the Watch."
"Thorne has the wight's hand to show them." A grisly pale thing with black fingers, it was, that twitched
and stirred in its jar as if it were still alive.


"Would that we had another hand to send to Renly."
"Dywen says you can find anything beyond the Wall."
"Aye, Dywen says. And the last time he went ranging, he says he saw a bear fifteen feet tall." Mormont
snorted. "My sister is said to have taken a bear for her lover. I'd believe that before I'd believe one fifteen
feet tall. Though in a world where dead come walking . . . ah, even so, a man must believe his eyes. I
have seen the dead walk. I've not seen any giant bears." He gave Jon a long, searching look. "But we
were speaking of hands. How is yours?"
"Better." Jon peeled off his moleskin glove and showed him. Scars covered his arm halfway to the
elbow, and the mottled pink flesh still felt tight and tender, but it was healing. "It itches, though. Maester
Aemon says that's good. He gave me a salve to take with me when we ride."
"You can wield Longclaw despite the pain?"
"Well enough." Jon flexed his fingers, opening and closing his fist the way the maester had shown him.
"I'm to work the fingers every day to keep them nimble, as Maester Aemon said."
"Blind he may be, but Aemon knows what he's about. I pray the gods let us keep him another twenty
years. Do you know that he might have been king?"
Jon was taken by surprise. "He told me his father was king, but not . . . I thought him perhaps a younger
son."
"So he was. His father's father was Daeron Targaryen, the Second of His Name, who brought Dorne
into the realm. Part of the pact was that he wed a Dornish princess. She gave him four sons. Aemon's
father Maekar was the youngest of those, and Aemon was his third son. Mind you, all this happened long
before I was born, ancient as Smallwood would make me."
"Maester Aemon was named for the Dragonknight."
"So he was. Some say Prince Aemon was King Daeron's true father, not Aegon the Unworthy. Be that
as it may, our Aemon lacked the Dragonknight's martial nature. He likes to say he had a slow sword but
quick wits. Small wonder his grandfather packed him off to the Citadel. He was nine or ten, I believe . . .
and ninth or tenth in the line of succession as well."
Maester Aemon had counted more than a hundred name days, Jon knew. Frail, shrunken, wizened, and
blind, it was hard to imagine him as a little boy no older than Arya.
Mormont continued. "Aemon was at his books when the eldest of his uncles, the heir apparent, was slain
in a tourney mishap. He left two sons, but they followed him to the grave not long after, during the Great
Spring Sickness. King Daeron was also taken, so the crown passed to Daeron's second son, Aerys."
"The Mad King?" Jon was confused. Aerys had been king before Robert, that wasn't so long ago.
"No, this was Aerys the First. The one Robert deposed was the second of that name."
"How long ago was this?"
"Eighty years or close enough," the Old Bear said, "and no, I still hadn't been born, though Aemon had


forged half a dozen links of his maester's chain by then. Aerys wed his own sister, as the Targaryens
were wont to do, and reigned for ten or twelve years. Aemon took his vows and left the Citadel to serve
at some lordling's court . . . until his royal uncle died without issue. The Iron Throne passed to the last of
King Daeron's four sons. That was Maekar, Aemon's father. The new king summoned all his sons to
court and would have made Aemon part of his councils, but he refused, saying that would usurp the place
rightly belonging to the Grand Maester. Instead he served at the keep of his eldest brother, another
Daeron. Well, that one died too, leaving only a feeble-witted daughter as heir. Some pox he caught from
a whore, I believe. The next brother was Aerion."
"Aerion the Monstrous?" Jon knew that name. "The Prince Who Thought He Was a Dragon" was one of
Old Nan's more gruesome tales. His little brother Bran had loved it.
"The very one, though he named himself Aerion Brightflame. One night, in his cups, he drank a jar of
wildfire, after telling his friends it would transform him into a dragon, but the gods were kind and it
transformed him into a corpse. Not quite a year after, King Maekar died in battle against an outlaw lord."
Jon was not entirely innocent of the history of the realm; his own
maester had seen to that. "That was the year of the Great Council," he said. "The lords passed over
Prince Aerion's infant son and Prince Daeron's daughter and gave the crown to Aegon."
"Yes and no. First they offered it, quietly, to Aemon. And quietly he refused. The gods meant for him to
serve, not to rule, he told them. He had sworn a vow and would not break it, though the High Septon
himself offered to absolve him. Well, no sane man wanted any blood of Aerion's on the throne, and
Daeron's girl was a lackwit besides being female, so they had no choice but to turn to Aemon's younger
brother-Aegon, the Fifth of His Name. Aegon the Unlikely, they called him, born the fourth son of a
fourth son. Aemon knew, and rightly, that if he remained at court those who disliked his brother's rule
would seek to use him, so he came to the Wall. And here he has remained, while his brother and his
brother's son and his son each reigned and died in turn, until Jaime Lannister put an end to the line of the
Dragonkings."
"King, " croaked the raven. The bird flapped across the solar to land on Mormont's shoulder. "King," it
said again, strutting back and forth.
"He likes that word," Jon said, smiling.
"An easy word to say. An easy word to like."
"King," the bird said again.
"I think he means for you to have a crown, my lord."
"The realm has three kings already, and that's two too many for my liking." Mormont stroked the raven
under the beak with a finger, but all the while his eyes never left Jon Snow.
It made him feel odd. "My lord, why have you told me this, about Maester Aemon?"
"Must I have a reason?" Mormont shifted in his seat, frowning. "Your brother Robb has been crowned
King in the North. You and Aemon have that in common. A king for a brother."
"And this too," said Jon. "A vow."


The Old Bear gave a loud snort, and the raven took flight, flapping in a circle about the room, "Give me
a man for every vow I've seen broken and the Wall will never lack for defenders."
"I've always known that Robb would be Lord of Winterfell."
Mormont gave a whistle, and the bird flew to him again and settled on his arm. "A lord's one thing, a
king's another." He offered the raven a handful of corn from his pocket. "They will garb your brother
Robb in silks, satins, and velvets of a hundred different colors, while you live and die in black ringmail.
He will wed some beautiful princess and father sons on her. You'll have no wife, nor will you ever hold a
child of your own blood in your arms. Robb will rule, you will serve. Men will call you a crow. Him they'll
call Your Grace. Singers will praise every little thing
he does, while your greatest deeds all go unsung. Tell me that none of this troubles you, Jon . . . and I'll
name you a liar, and know I have the truth of it."
Jon drew himself up, taut as a bowstring. "And if it did trouble me, what might I do, bastard as I am?"
"What will you do?" Mormont asked. "Bastard as you are?"
"Be troubled," said Jon, "and keep my vows."
CHAPTER 7
CATELYN
Her son's crown was fresh from the forge, and it seemed to Catelyn Stark that the weight of it pressed
heavy on Robb's head.
The ancient crown of the Kings of Winter had been lost three centuries ago, yielded up to Aegon the
Conqueror when Torrhen Stark knelt in submission. What Aegon had done with it no man could say.
Lord Hoster's smith had done his work well, and Robb's crown looked much as the other was said to
have looked in the tales told of the Stark kings of old; an open circlet of hammered bronze incised with
the runes of the First Men, surmounted by nine black iron spikes wrought in the shape of longswords. Of
gold and silver and gemstones, it had none; bronze and iron were the metals of winter, dark and strong to
fight against the cold.
As they waited in Riverrun's Great Hall for the prisoner to be brought before them, she saw Robb push
back the crown so it rested upon the thick auburn mop of his hair; moments later, he moved it forward
again; later he gave it a quarter turn, as if that might make it sit more easily on his brow. It is no easy thing
to wear a crown, Catelyn thought, watching, especially for a boy of fifteen years.
When the guards brought in the captive, Robb called for his sword. Olyvar Frey offered it up hilt first,
and her son drew the blade and laid it bare across his knees, a threat plain for all to see. "Your Grace,
here is the man you asked for," announced Ser Robin Ryger, captain of the Tully household guard.
"Kneel before the king, Lannister!" Theon Greyjoy shouted. Ser Robin forced the prisoner to his knees.


He did not look a lion, Catelyn reflected. This Ser Cleos Frey was a son of the Lady Genna who was
sister to Lord Tywin Lannister, but he had none of the fabled Lannister beauty, the fair hair and green
eyes. Instead he had inherited the stringy brown locks, weak chin, and thin face of his sire, Ser Emmon
Frey, old Lord Walder's second son. His eyes were pale and watery and he could not seem to stop
blinking, but perhaps that was only the light. The cells below Riverrun were dark and damp . . . and these
days crowded as well.
"Rise, Ser Cleos." Her son's voice was not as icy as his father's would have been, but he did not sound a
boy of fifteen either. War had made a man of him before his time. Morning light glimmered faintly against
the edge of the steel across his knees.
Yet it was not the sword that made Ser Cleos Frey anxious; it was the beast. Grey Wind, her son had
named him. A direwolf large as any elkhound, lean and smoke-dark, with eyes like molten gold. When
the beast padded forward and sniffed at the captive knight, every man in that hall could smell the scent of
fear. Ser Cleos had been taken during the battle in the Whispering Wood, where Grey Wind had ripped
out the throats of half a dozen men.
The knight scrambled up, edging away with such alacrity that some of the watchers laughed aloud.
"Thank you, my lord."
"Your Grace," barked Lord Umber, the Greatjon, ever the loudest of Robb's northern bannermen . . .
and the truest and fiercest as well, or so he insisted. He had been the first to proclaim her son King in the
North, and he would brook no slight to the honor of his new-made sovereign.
"Your Grace," Ser Cleos corrected hastily. "Pardons."
He is not a bold man, this one, Catelyn thought. More of a Frey than a Lannister, in truth. His cousin the
Kingslayer would have been a much different matter. They would never have gotten that honorific
through Ser Jaime Lannister's perfect teeth.
"I brought you from your cell to carry my message to your cousin Cersei Lannister in King's Landing.
You'll travel under a peace banner, with thirty of my best men to escort you."
Ser Cleos was visibly relieved. "Then I should be most glad to bring His Grace's message to the queen."
"Understand," Robb said, "I am not giving you your freedom. Your grandfather Lord Walder pledged
me his support and that of House Frey. Many of your cousins and uncles rode with us in the Whispering
Wood, but you chose to fight beneath the lion banner. That makes you a Lannister,
not a Frey. I want your pledge, on your honor as a knight, that after you deliver my message you'll
return with the queen's reply, and resume your captivity."
Ser Cleos answered at once. "I do so vow."
"Every man in this hall has heard you," warned Catelyn's brother Ser Edmure Tully, who spoke for
Riverrun and the lords of the Trident in the place of their dying father. "If you do not return, the whole
realm will know you forsworn."
"I will do as I pledged," Ser Cleos replied stiffly. "What is this message? "


"An offer of peace." Robb stood, longsword in hand. Grey Wind moved to his side. The hall grew
hushed. "Tell the Queen Regent that if she meets my terms, I will sheath this sword, and make an end to
the war between us."
In the back of the hall, Catelyn glimpsed the tall, gaunt figure of Lord Rickard Karstark shove through a
rank of guards and out the door. No one else moved. Robb paid the disruption no mind. "Olyvar, the
paper," he commanded. The squire took his longsword and handed up a rolled parchment.
Robb unrolled it. "First, the queen must release my sisters and provide them with transport by sea from
King's Landing to White Harbor. It is to be understood that Sansa's betrothal to Joffrey Baratheon is at
an end. When I receive word from my castellan that my sisters have returned unharmed to Winterfell, I
will release the queen's cousins, the squire Willem Lannister and your brother Tion Frey, and give them
safe escort to Casterly Rock or wheresoever she desires them delivered."
Catelyn Stark wished she could read the thoughts that hid behind each face, each furrowed brow and
pair of tightened lips.
"Secondly, my lord father's bones will be returned to us, so he may rest beside his brother and sister in
the crypts beneath Winterfell, as he would have wished. The remains of the men of his household guard
who died in his service at King's Landing must also be returned."
Living men had gone south, and cold bones would return. Ned had the truth of it, she thought. His place
was at Winterfell, he said as much, but would I hear him? No. Go, I told him, you must be Robert's
Hand, for the good of our House, for the sake of our children . . . my doing, mine, no other . . .
"Third, my father's greatsword Ice will be delivered to my hand, here at Riverrun."
She watched her brother Ser Edmure Tully as he stood with his thumbs hooked over his swordbelt, his
face as still as stone.
"Fourth, the queen will command her father Lord Tywin to release
those knights and lords bannermen of mine that he took captive in the battle on the Green Fork of the
Trident. Once he does so, I shall release my own captives taken in the Whispering Wood and the Battle
of the Camps, save Jaime Lannister alone, who will remain my hostage for his father's good behavior."
She studied Theon Greyjoy's sly smile, wondering what it meant. That young man had a way of looking
as though he knew some secret jest that only he was privy to; Catelyn had never liked it.
"Lastly, King Joffrey and the Queen Regent must renounce all claims to dominion over the north.
Henceforth we are no part of their realm, but a free and independent kingdom, as of old. Our domain
shall include all the Stark lands north of the Neck, and in addition the lands watered by the River Trident
and its vassal streams, bounded by the Golden Tooth to the west and the Mountains of the Moon in the
east."
"THE KING IN THE NORTH!" boomed Greatjon Umber, a ham-sized fist hammering at the air as he
shouted. "Stark! Stark! The King in the North!
Robb rolled up the parchment again. "Maester Vyman has drawn a map, showing the borders we claim.
You shall have a copy for the queen. Lord Tywin must withdraw beyond these borders, and cease his
raiding, burning, and pillage. The Queen Regent and her son shall make no claims to taxes, incomes, nor


service from my people, and shall free my lords and knights from all oaths of fealty, vows, pledges,
debts, and obligations owed to the Iron Throne and the Houses Baratheon and Lanister. Additionally, the
Lannisters shall deliver ten highborn hostages, to be mutually agreed upon, as a pledge of peace. These I
will treat as honored guests, according to their station. So long as the terms of this pact are abided with
faithfully, I shall release two hostages every year, and return them safely to their families." Robb tossed
the rolled parchment at the knight's feet. "There are the terms. If she meets them, I'll give her peace. if
not" - he whistled, and Grey Wind moved forward snarling - "I'll give her another Whispering Wood."
"Stark!" the Greatjon roared again, and now other voices took up the cry. "Stark, Stark, King in the
North!" The direwolf threw back his head and howled.
Ser Cleos had gone the color of curdled milk. "The queen shall hear your message, my-Your Grace."
"Good," Robb said. "Ser Robin, see that he has a good meal and clean clothing. He's to ride at first
light."
"As you command, Your Grace," Ser Robin Ryger replied.
"Then we are done." The assembled knights and lords bannermen bent their knees as Robb turned to
leave, Grey Wind at his heels. Olyvar
Frey scrambled ahead to open the door. Catelyn followed them out, her brother at her side.
"You did well," she told her son in the gallery that led from the rear of the hall, "though that business with
the wolf was japery more befitting a boy than a king."
Robb scratched Grey Wind behind the ear. "Did you see the look on his face, Mother?" he asked,
smiling.
"What I saw was Lord Karstark, walking out."
"As did I" Robb lifted off his crown with both hands and gave it to Olyvar. "Take this thing back to my
bedchamber."
"At once, Your Grace." The squire hurried off.
"I'll wager there were others who felt the same as Lord Karstark," her brother Edmure declared. "How
can we talk of peace while the Lannisters spread like a pestilence over my father's domains, stealing his
crops and slaughtering his people? I say again, we ought to be marching on Harrenhal."
"We lack the strength," Robb said, though unhappily.
Edmure persisted. "Do we grow stronger sitting here? Our host dwindles every day."
"And whose doing is that?" Catelyn snapped at her brother. It had been at Edmure's insistence that
Robb had given the river lords leave to depart after his crowning, each to defend his own lands. Ser
Marq Piper and Lord Karyl Vance had been the first to go. Lord Jonos Bracken had followed, vowing
to reclaim the burnt shell of his castle and bury his dead, and now Lord Jason Mallister had announced
his intent to return to his seat at Seagard, still mercifully untouched by the fighting.
"You cannot ask my river lords to remain idle while their fields are being pillaged and their people put to


the sword," Ser Edmure said, "but Lord Karstark is a northman. It would be an ill thing if he were to
leave us."
"I'll speak with him," said Robb. "He lost two sons in the Whispering Wood. Who can blame him if he
does not want to make peace with their killers . . . with my father's killers . . ."
"More bloodshed will not bring your father back to us, or Lord Rickard's sons," Catelyn said. "An offer
had to be madethough a wiser man might have offered sweeter terms."
"Any sweeter and I would have gagged." Her son's beard had grown in redder than his auburn hair.
Robb seemed to think it made him look fierce, royal . . . older. But bearded or no, he was still a youth of
fifteen, and wanted vengeance no less than Rickard Karstark. it had been no easy thing to convince him
to make even this offer, poor as it was.
"Cersei Lannister will never consent to trade your sisters for a pair of
cousins. It's her brother she'll want, as you know full well." She had told him as much before, but
Catelyn was finding that kings do not listen half so attentively as sons.
"I can't release the Kingslayer, not even if I wanted to. My lords would never abide it."
"Your lords made you their king."
"And can unmake me just as easy."
"If your crown is the price we must pay to have Arya and Sansa returned safe, we should pay it willingly.
Half your lords would like to murder Lannister in his cell. If he should die while he's your prisoner, men
will say-"
"-that he well deserved it," Robb finished.
"And your sisters?" Catelyn asked sharply. "Will they deserve their deaths as well? I promise you, if any
harm comes to her brother, Cersei will pay us back blood for blood-"
"Lannister won't die," Robb said. "No one so much as speaks to him without my warrant. He has food,
water, clean straw, more comfort than he has any right to. But I won't free him, not even for Arya and
Sansa."
Her son was looking down at her, Catelyn realized. Was it war that made him grow so fast, she
wondered, or the crown they had put on his head? "Are you afraid to have Jaime Lannister in the field
again, is that the truth of it?"
Grey Wind growled, as if he sensed Robb's anger, and Edmure Tully put a brotherly hand on Catelyn's
shoulder. "Cat, don't. The boy has the right of this."
"Don't call me the boy," Robb said, rounding on his uncle, his anger spilling out all at once on poor
Edmure, who had only meant to support him. "I'm almost a man grown, and a king-your king, ser. And I
don't fear Jaime Lannister. I defeated him once, I'll defeat him again if I must, only . ." He pushed a fall of
hair out of his eyes and gave a shake of the head. "I might have been able to trade the Kingslayer for
Father, but . . "


. but not for the girls?" Her voice was icy quiet. "Girls are not important enough, are they?"
Robb made no answer, but there was hurt in his eyes. Blue eyes, Tully eyes, eyes she had given him.
She had wounded him, but he was too much his father's son to admit it.
That was unworthy of me, she told herself. Gods be good, what is to become of me? He is doing his
best, trying so hard, I know it, I see it, and yet . . . I have lost my Ned, the rock my life was built on, I
could not bear to lose the girls as well . . .
"I'll do all I can for my sisters," Robb said. "If the queen has any sense, she'll accept my terms. If not, I'll
make her rue the day she refused me."
Plainly, he'd had enough of the subject. "Mother, are you certain you will not consent to go to the
Twins? You would be farther from the fighting, and you could acquaint yourself with Lord Frey's
daughters to help me choose my bride when the war is done."
He wants me gone, Catelyn thought wearily. Kings are not supposed to have mothers, it would seem,
and I tell him things he does not want to hear. "You're old enough to decide which of Lord Walder's girls
you prefer without your mother's help, Robb."
"Then go with Theon. He leaves on the morrow. He'll help the Mallisters escort that lot of captives to
Seagard and then take ship for the Iron Islands. You could find a ship as well, and be back at Winterfell
with a moon's turn, if the winds are kind. Bran and Rickon need you."
And you do not, is that what you mean to say? "My lord father has little enough time remaining him. So
long as your grandfather lives, my place is at Riverrun with him."
"I could command you to go. As king. I could."
Catelyn ignored that. "I'll say again, I would sooner you sent someone else to Pyke, and kept Theon
close to you."
"Who better to treat with Balon Greyjoy than his son?"
"Jason Mallister," offered Catelyn. "Tytos Blackwood. Stevron Frey. Anyone . . . but not Theon."
Her son squatted beside Grey Wind, ruffling the wolf's fur and incidentally avoiding her eyes. "Theon's
fought bravely for us. I told you how he saved Bran from those wildlings in the wolfswood. If the
Lannisters won't make peace, I'll have need of Lord Greyjoy's longships."
"You'll have them sooner if you keep his son as hostage."
"He's been a hostage half his life."
"For good reason," Catelyn said. "Balon Greyjoy is not a man to be trusted. He wore a crown himself,
remember, if only for a season. He may aspire to wear one again."
Robb stood. "I will not grudge him that. If I'm King in the North, let him be King of the Iron Islands, if
that's his desire. I'll give him a crown gladly, so long as he helps us bring down the Lannisters."
"Robb-"


"I'm sending Theon. Good day, Mother. Grey Wind, come." Robb walked off briskly, the direwolf
padding beside him.
Catelyn could only watch him go. Her son and now her king. How queer that felt. Command, she had
told him back in Moat Cailin. And so he did. "I am going to visit Father," she announced abruptly. "Come
with me, Edmure."
"I need to have a word with those new bowmen Ser Desmond is training. I'll visit him later."
If he still lives, Catelyn thought, but she said nothing. Her brother would sooner face battle than that
sickroom.
The shortest way to the central keep where her father lay dying was through the godswood, with its
grass and wildflowers and thick stands of elm and redwood. A wealth of rustling leaves still clung to the
branches of the trees, all ignorant of the word the white raven had brought to Riverrun a fortnight past.
Autumn had come, the Conclave had declared, but the gods had not seen fit to tell the winds and woods
as yet. For that Catelyn was duly grateful. Autumn was always a fearful time, with the specter of winter
looming ahead. Even the wisest man never knew whether his next harvest would be the last.
Hoster Tully, Lord of Riverrun, lay abed in his solar, with its commanding view to the east where the
rivers Tumblestone and Red Fork met beyond the walls of his castle. He was sleeping when Catelyn
entered, his hair and beard as white as his featherbed, his once portly frame turned small and frail by the
death that grew within him.
Beside the bed, still dressed in mail hauberk and travel-stained cloak, sat her father's brother, the
Blackfish. His boots were dusty and spattered with dried mud. "Does Robb know you are returned,
Uncle?" Ser Brynden Tully was Robb's eyes and ears, the commander of his scouts and outriders.
"No. I came here straight from the stables, when they told me the king was holding court. His Grace will
want to hear my tidings in private first I'd think." The Blackfish was a tall, lean man, grey of hair and
precise in his movements, his clean-shaven face lined and windburnt. "How is he?" he asked, and she
knew he did not mean Robb.
"Much the same. The maester gives him drearnwine and milk of the poppy for his pain, so he sleeps
most of the time, and eats too little. He seems weaker with each day that passes."
"Does he speak?"
"Yes . . . but there is less and less sense to the things he says. He talks of his regrets, of unfinished tasks,
of people long dead and times long past. Sometimes he does not know what season it is, or who I am.
Once he called me by Mother's name."
"He misses her still," Ser Brynden answered. "You have her face. I can see it in your cheekbones, and
your jaw . . ."
"You remember more of her than I do. It has been a long time." She seated herself on the bed and
brushed away a strand of fine white hair that had fallen across her father's face.
"Each time I ride out, I wonder if I shall find him alive or dead on my return." Despite their quarrels,
there was a deep bond between her father and the brother he had once disowned.


"At least you made your peace with him."
They sat for a time in silence, until Catelyn raised her head. "You spoke of tidings that Robb needed to
hear?" Lord Hoster moaned and rolled onto his side, almost as if he had heard.
Brynden stood. "Come outside. Best if we do not wake him."
She followed him out onto the stone balcony that jutted three-sided from the solar like the prow of a
ship. Her uncle glanced up, frowning. "You can see it by day now. My men call it the Red Messenger . . .
but what is the message?"
Catelyn raised her eyes, to where the faint red line of the comet traced a path across the deep blue sky
like a long scratch across the face of god. "The Greatjon told Robb that the old gods have unfurled a red
flag of vengeance for Ned. Edmure thinks it's an omen of victory for Riverrunhe sees a fish with a long
tail, in the Tully colors, red against blue." She sighed. "I wish I had their faith. Crimson is a Lannister
color."
"That thing's not crimson," Ser Brynden said. "Nor Tully red, the mud red of the river. That's blood up
there, child, smeared across the sky.''
"Our blood or theirs?"
"Was there ever a war where only one side bled?" Her uncle gave a shake of the head. "The riverlands
are awash in blood and flame all around the Gods Eye. The fighting has spread south to the Blackwater
and north across the Trident, almost to the Twins. Marq Piper and Karyl Vance have won some small
victories, and this southron lordling Beric Dondarrion has been raiding the raiders, falling upon Lord
Tywin's foraging parties and vanishing back into the woods. It's said that Ser Burton Crakehall was
boasting that he'd slain Dondarrion, until he led his column into one of Lord Beric's traps and got every
man of them killed."
"Some of Ned's guard from King's Landing are with this Lord Beric," Catelyn recalled. "May the gods
preserve them."
"Dondarrion and this red priest who rides with him are clever enough to preserve themselves, if the tales
be true," her uncle said, "but your father's bannermen make a sadder tale. Robb should never have let
them go. They've scattered like quail, each man trying to protect his own, and it's folly, Cat, folly. Jonos
Bracken was wounded in the fighting amidst the ruins of his castle, and his nephew Hendry slain. Tytos
Blackwood's swept the Lannisters off his lands, but they took every cow and pig and speck of grain and
left him nothing to defend but Raventree Hall and a scorched desert. Darry men recaptured their lord's
keep but held it less than a fortnight before Gregor Clegane descended on them and put the whole
garrison to the sword, even their lord."
Catelyn was horrorstruck. "Darry was only a child."
"Aye, and the last of his line as well. The boy would have brought a fine ransom, but what does gold
mean to a frothing dog like Gregor Clegane? That beast's head would make a noble gift for all the people
of the realm, I vow."
Catelyn knew Ser Gregor's evil reputation, yet still "Don't speak to me of heads, Uncle. Cersei has
mounted Ned's on a spike above the walls of the Red Keep, and left it for the crows and flies." Even


now, it was hard for her to believe that he was truly gone. Some nights she would wake in darkness,
half-asleep, and for an instant expect to find him there beside her. "Clegane is no more than Lord Tywin's
catspaw." For Tywin Lannister-Lord of Casterly Rock, Warden of the West, father to Queen Cersei,
Ser Jaime the Kingslayer, and Tyrion the Imp, and grandfather to Joffrey Baratheon, the new-crowned
boy king-was the true danger, Catelyn believed.
"True enough," Ser Brynden admitted. "And Tywin Lannister is no man's fool. He sits safe behind the
walls of Harrenhal, feeding his host on our harvest and burning what he does not take. Gregor is not the
only dog he's loosed. Ser Amory Lorch is in the field as well, and some sellsword out of Qohor who'd
sooner maim a man than kill him. I've seen what they leave behind them. Whole villages put to the torch,
women raped and mutilated, butchered children left unburied to draw wolves and wild dogs . . . it would
sicken even the dead."
"When Edmure hears this, he will rage."
"And that will be just as Lord Tywin desires. Even terror has its purpose, Cat. Lannister wants to
provoke us to battle."
"Robb is like to give him that wish," Catelyn said, fretful. "He is restless as a cat sitting here, and Edmure
and the Greatjon and the others will urge him on." Her son had won two great victories, smashing Jaime
Lannister in the Whispering Wood and routing his leaderless host outside the walls of Riverrun in the
Battle of the Camps, but from the way some of his bannermen spoke of him, he might have been Aegon
the Conqueror reborn.
Brynden Blackfish arched a bushy grey eyebrow. "More fool they. My first rule of war, Cat-never give
the enemy his wish. Lord Tywin would like to fight on a field of his own choosing. He wants us to march
on Harrenhal."
"Harrenhal." Every child of the Trident knew the tales told of Harrenhal, the vast fortress that King
Harren the Black had raised beside the waters of Gods Eye three hundred years past, when the Seven
Kingdoms had been seven kingdoms, and the riverlands were ruled by the ironmen from the islands. In
his pride, Harren had desired the highest hall and tallest towers in all Westeros. Forty years it had taken,
rising like a great
shadow on the shore of the lake while Harren's armies plundered his neighbors for stone, lumber, gold,
and workers. Thousands of captives died in his quarries, chained to his sledges, or laboring on his five
colossal towers. Men froze by winter and sweltered in summer. Weirwoods that had stood three
thousand years were cut down for beams and rafters. Harren had beggared the riverlands and the Iron
Islands alike to ornament his dream. And when at last Harrenhal stood complete, on the very day King
Harren took up residence, Aegon the Conqueror had come ashore at King's Landing.
Catelyn could remember hearing Old Nan tell the story to her own children, back at Winterfell. "And
King Harren learned that thick walls and high towers are small use against dragons," the tale always
ended. "For dragons fly." Harren and all his line had perished in the fires that engulfed his monstrous
fortress, and every house that held Harrenhal since had come to misfortune. Strong it might be, but it was
a dark place, and cursed.
"I would not have Robb fight a battle in the shadow of that keep," Catelyn admitted. "Yet we must do
something, Uncle."
"And soon," her uncle agreed. "I have not told you the worst of it, child. The men I sent west have


brought back word that a new host is gathering at Casterly Rock."
Another Lannister army. The thought made her ill. "Robb must be told at once. Who will command?"
"Ser Stafford Lannister, it's said." He turned to gaze out over the rivers, his red-and-blue cloak stirring in
the breeze.
"Another nephew?" The Lannisters of Casterly Rock were a damnably large and fertile house.
"Cousin," Ser Brynden corrected. "Brother to Lord Tywin's late wife, so twice related. An old man and
a bit of a dullard, but he has a son, Ser Daven, who is more formidable."
"Then let us hope it is the father and not the son who takes this army into the field."
"We have some time yet before we must face them. This lot will be sellswords, freeriders, and green
boys from the stews of Lannisport. Ser Stafford must see that they are armed and drilled before he dare
risk battle . . . and make no mistake, Lord Tywin is not the Kingslayer. He will not rush in heedless. He
will wait patiently for Ser Stafford to march before he stirs from behind the walls of Harrenhal."
"Unless . . ." said Catelyn.
"Yes?" Ser Brynden prompted.
"Unless he must leave Harrenhal," she said, "to face some other threat."
Her uncle looked at her thoughtfully. "Lord Renly."
"King Renly." If she would ask help from the man, she would need to grant him the style he had claimed
for himself.
"Perhaps." The Blackfish smiled a dangerous smile. "He'll want something, though."
"He'll want what kings always want," she said. "Homage."
CHAPTER 8
TYRION
Janos Slynt was a butcher's son, and he laughed like a man chopping meat. "More wine?" Tyrion asked
him.
"I should not object," Lord Janos said, holding out his cup. He was built like a keg, and had a similar
capacity. "I should not object at all. That's a fine red. From the Arbor?"
"Dornish." Tyrion gestured, and his serving man poured. But for the servants, he and Lord Janos were
alone in the Small Hall, at a small candlelit table surrounded by darkness. "Quite the find. Dornish wines
are not often so rich."


"Rich," said the big frog-faced man, taking a healthy gulp. He was not a man for sipping, Janos Slynt.
Tyrion had made note of that at once. "Yes, rich, that's the very word I was searching for, the very word.
You have a gift for words, Lord Tyrion, if I might say so. And you tell a droll tale. Droll, yes."
"I'm pleased you think so . . . but I'm not a lord, as you are. A simple Tyrion will suffice for me, Lord
Janos."
"As you wish." He took another swallow, dribbling wine on the front of his black satin doublet. He was
wearing a clothof-gold half cape fastened with a miniature spear, its point enameled in dark red. And he
was well and truly drunk.
Tyrion covered his mouth and belched politely. Unlike Lord Janos he had gone easy on the wine, but he
was very full. The first thing he had done after taking up residence in the Tower of the Hand was inquire
after
the finest cook in the city and take her into his service. This evening they had supped on oxtail soup,
summer greens tossed with pecans, grapes, red fennel, and crumbled cheese, hot crab pie, spiced
squash, and quails drowned in butter. Each dish had come with its own wine. Lord Janos allowed that he
had never eaten half so well. "No doubt that will change when you take your seat in Harrenhal," Tyrion
said.
"For a certainty. Perhaps I should ask this cook of yours to enter my service, what do you say?"
"Wars have been fought over less," he said, and they both had a good long laugh. "You're a bold man to
take Harrenhal for your seat. Such a grim place, and huge . . . costly to maintain. And some say cursed
as well."
"Should I fear a pile of stone?" He hooted at the notion. "A bold man, you said. You must be bold, to
rise. As I have. To Harrenhal, yes! And why not? You know. You are a bold man too, I sense. Small,
mayhap, but bold. "
"You are too kind. More wine?"
"No. No, truly, I . . . oh, gods be damned, yes. Why not? A bold man drinks his fill!"
"Truly." Tyrion filled Lord Slynt's cup to the brim. "I have been glancing over the names you put forward
to take your place as Commander of the City Watch."
"Good men. Fine men. Any of the six will do, but Id choose Allar Deem. My right arm. Good good
man. Loyal. Pick him and you won't be sorry. If he pleases the king."
"To be sure." Tyrion took a small sip of his own wine. "I had been considering Ser Jacelyn Bywater.
He's been captain on the Mud Gate for three years, and he served with valor during Balon Greyjoy's
Rebellion. King Robert knighted him at Pyke. And yet his name does not appear on your list."
Lord Janos Slynt took a gulp of wine and sloshed it around in his mouth for a moment before
swallowing. "Bywater. Well. Brave man, to be sure, yet . . . he's rigid, that one. A queer dog. The men
don't like him. A cripple too, lost his hand at Pyke, that's what got him knighted. A poor trade, if you ask
me, a hand for a ser." He laughed. "Ser Jacelyn thinks overmuch of himself and his honor, as I see it.
You'll do better leaving that one where he is, my lor-Tyrion. Allar Deem's the man for you."


"Deem is little loved in the streets, I am told."
"He's feared. That's better."
"What was it I heard of him? Some trouble in a brothel?"
"That. Not his fault, my lor-Tyrion. No. He never meant to kill the woman, that was her own doing. He
warned her to stand aside and let him do his duty."
"Still . . . mothers and children, he might have expected she'd try to save the babe." Tyrion smiled. "Have
some of this cheese, it goes splendidly with the wine. Tell me, why did you choose Deem for that
unhappy task?"
"A good commander knows his men, Tyrion. Some are good for one job, some for another. Doing for a
babe, and her still on the tit, that takes a certain sort. Not every man'd do it. Even if it was only some
whore and her whelp."
"I suppose that's so," said Tyrion, hearing only some whore and thinking of Shae, and Tysha long ago,
and all the other women who had taken his coin and his seed over the years.
Slynt went on, oblivious. "A hard man for a hard job, is Deem. Does as he's told, and never a word
afterward." He cut a slice off the cheese. "This is fine. Sharp. Give me a good sharp knife and a good
sharp cheese and I'm a happy man."
Tyrion shrugged. "Enjoy it while you can. With the riverlands in flame and Renly king in Highgarden,
good cheese will soon be hard to come by. So who sent you after the whore's bastard?"
Lord Janos gave Tyrion a wary look, then laughed and wagged a wedge of cheese at him. "You're a sly
one, Tyrion. Thought you could trick me, did you? it takes more than wine and cheese to make Janos
Slynt tell more than he should. I pride myself. Never a question, and never a word afterward, not with
me."
"As with Deem."
"Just the same. You make him your Commander when I'm off to Harrenhal, and you won't regret it."
Tyrion broke off a nibble of the cheese. It was sharp indeed, and veined with wine; very choice.
"Whoever the king names will not have an easy time stepping into your armor, I can tell. Lord Mormont
faces the same problem."
Lord Janos looked puzzled. "I thought she was a lady. Mormont. Beds down with bears, that's the
one?"
"It was her brother I was speaking of. Jeor Mormont, the Lord Commander of the Night's Watch.
When I was visiting with him on the Wall, he mentioned how concerned he was about finding a good man
to take his place. The Watch gets so few good men these days." Tyrion grinned. "He'd sleep easier if he
had a man like you, I imagine. Or the valiant Allar Deem."
Lord Janos roared. "Small chance of that!"


"One would think," Tyrion said, "but life does take queer turns. Consider Eddard Stark, my lord. I don't
suppose he ever imagined his life would end on the steps of Baelor's Sept."
"There were damn few as did," Lord Janos allowed, chuckling.
Tyrion chuckled too. "A pity I wasn't here to see it. They say even Varys was surprised."
Lord Janos laughed so hard his gut shook. "The Spider," he said. "Knows everything, they say. Well, he
didn't know that."
"How could he?" Tyrion put the first hint of a chill in his tone. "He had helped persuade my sister that
Stark should be pardoned, on the condition that he take the black."
"Eh?" Janos Slynt blinked vaguely at Tyrion.
"My sister Cersei," Tyrion repeated, a shade more strongly, in case the fool had some doubt who he
meant. "The Queen Regent."
"Yes." Slynt took a swallow. "As to that, well . . . the king commanded it, m'lord. The king himself."
"The king is thirteen," Tyrion reminded him.
"Still. He is the king." Slynt's jowls quivered when he frowned. "The Lord of the Seven Kingdoms."
"Well, one or two of them, at least," Tyrion said with a sour smile. "Might I have a look at your spear?"
"My spear?" Lord Janos blinked in confusion.
Tyrion pointed. "The clasp that fastens your cape."
Hesitantly, Lord Janos drew out the ornament and handed it to Tyrion.
"We have goldsmiths in Lannisport who do better work,[1]he opined. "The red enamel blood is a shade
much, if you don't mind my saying. Tell me, my lord, did you drive the spear into the man's back yourself,
or did you only give the command?"
"I gave the command, and I'd give it again. Lord Stark was a traitor." The bald spot in the middle of
Slynt's head was beet-red, and his clothof-gold cape had slithered off his shoulders onto the floor. "The
man tried to buy me."
"Little dreaming that you had already been sold."
Slynt slammed down his wine cup. "Are you drunk? If you think I will sit here and have my honor
questioned . . ."
"What honor is that? I do admit, you made a better bargain than Ser Jacelyn. A lordship and a castle for
a spear thrust in the back, and you didn't even need to thrust the spear." He tossed the golden ornament
back to Janos Slynt. It bounced off his chest and clattered to the floor as the man rose.
"I mislike the tone of your voice, my lo-Imp. I am the Lord of Har-


renhal and a member of the king's council, who are you to chastise me like this?"
Tyrion cocked his head sideways. "I think you know quite well who I am. How many sons do you
have?"
"What are my sons to you, dwarf?"
"Dwarf?" His anger flashed. "You should have stopped at Imp. I am Tyrion of House Lannister, and
someday, if you have the sense the gods gave a sea slug, you will drop to your knees in thanks that it was
me you had to deal with, and not my lord father. Now, how many sons do you have?"
Tyrion could see the sudden fear in Janos Slynt's eyes. "Th-three, m'lord. And a daughter. Please,
m'lord-"
"You need not beg." He slid off his chair. "You have my word, no harm will come to them. The younger
boys will be fostered out as squires. If they serve well and loyally, they may be knights in time. Let it
never be said that House Lannister does not reward those who serve it. Your eldest son will inherit the
title Lord Slynt, and this appalling sigil of yours." He kicked at the little golden spear and sent it skittering
across the floor. "Lands will be found for him, and he can build a seat for himself. It will not be Harrenhal,
but it will be sufficient. it will be up to him to make a marriage for the girl."
Janos Slynt's face had gone from red to white. "Wh-what . . . what do you . . . ?" His jowls were
quivering like mounds of suet.
"What do I mean to do with you?" Tyrion let the oaf tremble for a moment before he answered. "The
carrack Summer's Dream sails on the morning tide. Her master tells me she will call at Gulltown, the
Three Sisters, the isle of Skagos, and Eastwatch-by-the-Sea. When you see Lord Commander
Mormont, give him my fond regards, and tell him that I have not forgotten the needs of the Night's
Watch. I wish you long life and good service, my lord."
Once Janos Slynt realized he was not to be summarily executed, color returned to his face. He thrust his
jaw out. "We will see about this, Imp. Dwarf. Perhaps it will be you on that ship, what do you think of
that? Perhaps it will be you on the Wall." He gave a bark of anxious laughter. "You and your threats,
well, we will see. I am the king's friend, you know. We shall hear what Joffrey has to say about this. And
Littlefinger and the queen, oh, yes. Janos Slynt has a good many friends. We will see who goes sailing, I
promise you. Indeed we will."
Slynt spun on his heel like the watchman he'd once been, and strode the length of the Small Hall, boots
ringing on the stone. He clattered up the steps, threw open the door . . . and came face-to-face with a
tall, lantern-jawed man in black breastplate and gold cloak. Strapped to the
stump of his right wrist was an iron hand. "Janos," he said, deep-set eyes glinting under a prominent
brow ridge and a shock of salt-and-pepper hair. Six gold cloaks moved quietly into the Small Hall behind
him as Janos Slynt backed away.
"Lord Slynt," Tyrion called out, "I believe you know Ser Jacelyn Bywater, our new Commander of the
City Watch."
"We have a litter waiting for you, my lord," Ser Jacelyn told Slynt. "The docks are dark and distant, and
the streets are not safe by night. Men."


As the gold cloaks ushered out their onetime commander, Tyrion called Ser Jacelyn to his side and
handed him a roll of parchment. "It's a long voyage, and Lord Slynt will want for company. See that these
six join him on the Summer's Dream."
Bywater glanced over the names and smiled. "As you will."
"There's one," Tyrion said quietly. "Deem. Tell the captain it would not be taken amiss if that one should
happen to be swept overboard before they reach Eastwatch."
"I'm told those northern waters are very stormy, my lord." Ser Jacelyn bowed and took his leave, his
cloak rippling behind him. He trod on Slynt's cloth-of-gold cape on his way.
Tyrion sat alone, sipping at what remained of the fine sweet Dornish wine. Servants came and went,
clearing the dishes from the table. He told them to leave the wine. When they were done, Varys came
gliding into the hall, wearing flowing lavender robes that matched his smell. "Oh sweetly done, my good
lord."
"Then why do I have this bitter taste in my mouth?" He pressed his fingers into his temples. "I told them
to throw Allar Deem into the sea. I am sorely tempted to do the same with you."
"You might be disappointed by the result," Varys replied. "The storms come and go, the waves crash
overhead, the big fish eat the little fish, and I keep on paddling. Might I trouble you for a taste of the wine
that Lord Slynt enjoyed so much?"
Tyrion waved at the flagon, frowning.
Varys filled a cup. "Ah. Sweet as summer." He took another sip. "I hear the grapes singing on my
tongue."
"I wondered what that noise was. Tell the grapes to keep still, my head is about to split. It was my sister.
That was what the oh-so-loyal Lord Janos refused to say. Cersei sent the gold cloaks to that brothel."
Varys tittered nervously. So he had known all along.
"You left that part out," Tyrion said accusingly.
"Your own sweet sister," Varys said, so grief-stricken he looked close to tears. "It is a hard thing to tell a
man, my lord. I was fearful how you might take it. Can you forgive me?"
"No," Tyrion snapped. "Damn you. Damn her." He could not touch Cersei, he knew. Not yet, not even
if he'd wanted to, and he was far from certain that he did. Yet it rankled, to sit here and make a
mummer's show of justice by punishing the sorry likes of Janos Slynt and Allar Deem, while his sister
continued on her savage course. "In future, you will tell me what you know, Lord Varys. All of what you
know."
The eunuch's smile was sly. "That might take rather a long time, my good lord. I know quite a lot."
"Not enough to save this child, it would seem."
"Alas, no. There was another bastard, a boy, older. I took steps to see him removed from harm's way . .
. but I confess, I never dreamed the babe would be at risk. A baseborn girl, less than a year old, with a


whore for a mother. What threat could she pose?"
"She was Robert's," Tyrion said bitterly. "That was enough for Cersei, it would seem."
"Yes. It is grievous sad. I must blame myself for the poor sweet babe and her mother, who was so
young and loved the king."
"Did she?" Tyrion had never seen the dead girl's face, but in his mind she was Shae and Tysha both.
"Can a whore truly love anyone, I wonder? No, don't answer. Some things I would rather not know." He
had settled Shae in a sprawling stone-and-timber manse, with its own well and stable and garden; he had
given her servants to see to her wants, a white bird from the Summer Isles to keep her company, silks
and silver and gemstones to adorn her, guards to protect her. And yet she seemed restive. She wanted to
be with him more, she told him; she wanted to serve him and help him. "You help me most here, between
the sheets," he told her one night after their loving as he lay beside her, his head pillowed against her
breast, his groin aching with a sweet soreness. She made no reply, save with her eyes. He could see
there that it was not what she'd wanted to hear.
Sighing, Tyrion started to reach for the wine again, then remembered Lord Janos and pushed the flagon
away. "It does seem my sister was telling the truth about Stark's death. We have my nephew to thank for
that madness."
"King Joffrey gave the command. Janos Slynt and Ser Ilyn Payne carried it out, swiftly, without
hesitation . . ."
". . . almost as if they had expected it. Yes, we have been over this ground before, without profit. A
folly."
"With the City Watch in hand, my lord, you are well placed to see to it that His Grace commits no
further . . . follies? To be sure, there is still the queen's household guard to consider . . ."
"The red cloaks?" Tyrion shrugged. "Vylarr's loyalty is to Casterly Rock. He knows I am here with my
father's authority. Cersei would find
it hard to use his men against me . . . besides, they are only a hundred. I have half again as many men of
my own. And six thousand gold cloaks, if Bywater is the man you claim."
"You will find Ser Jacelyn to be courageous, honorable, obedient . . . and most grateful."
"To whom, I wonder?" Tyrion did not trust Varys, though there was no denying his value. He knew
things, beyond a doubt. "Why are you so helpful, my lord Varys?" he asked, studying the man's soft
hands, the bald powdered face, the slimy little smile.
"You are the Hand. I serve the realm, the king, and you."
"As you served Jon Arryn and Eddard Stark?"
"I served Lord Arryn and Lord Stark as best I could. I was saddened and horrified by their most
untimely deaths."
"Think how I feel. I'm like to be next."


"Oh, I think not," Varys said, swirling the wine in his cup. "Power is a curious thing, my lord. Perchance
you have considered the riddle I posed you that day in the inn?"
"It has crossed my mind a time or two," Tyrion admitted. "The king, the priest, the rich man-who lives
and who dies? Who will the swordsman obey? It's a riddle without an answer, or rather, too many
answers. All depends on the man with the sword."
"And yet he is no one," Varys said. "He has neither crown nor gold nor favor of the gods, only a piece of
pointed steel."
"That piece of steel is the power of life and death."
"Just so . . . yet if it is the swordsmen who rule us in truth, why do we pretend our kings hold the power?
Why should a strong man with a sword ever obey a child king like Joffrey, or a wine-sodden oaf like his
father? "
"Because these child kings and drunken oafs can call other strong men, with other swords."
"Then these other swordsmen have the true power. Or do they? Whence came their swords? Why do
they obey?" Varys smiled. "Some say knowledge is power. Some tell us that all power comes from the
gods. Others say it derives from law. Yet that day on the steps of Baelor's Sept, our godly High Septon
and the lawful Queen Regent and your everso-knowledgeable servant were as powerless as any cobbler
or cooper in the crowd. Who truly killed Eddard Stark do you think? Joffrey, who gave the command?
Ser Ilyn Payne, who swung the sword? Or . . . another? "
Tyrion cocked his head sideways. "Did you mean to answer your damned riddle, or only to make my
head ache worse?"
Varys smiled. "Here, then. Power resides where men believe it resides. No more and no less."
"So power is a mummer's trick?"
"A shadow on the wall," Varys murmured, "yet shadows can kill. And ofttimes a very small man can cast
a very large shadow."
Tyrion smiled. "Lord Varys, I am growing strangely fond of you. I may kill you yet, but I think Id feel
sad about it."
"I will take that as high praise."
"What are you, Varys?" Tyrion found he truly wanted to know. "A spider, they say."
"Spies and informers are seldom loved, my lord. I am but a loyal servant of the realm."
"And a eunuch. Let us not forget that."
"I seldom do."
"People have called me a halfman too, yet I think the gods have been kinder to me. I am small, my legs
are twisted, and women do not look upon me with any great yearning . . . yet I'm still a man. Shae is not
the first to grace my bed, and one day I may take a wife and sire a son. If the gods are good, he'll look


like his uncle and think like his father. You have no such hope to sustain you. Dwarfs are a jape of the
gods . . . but men make eunuchs. Who cut you, Varys? When and why? Who are you, truly? "
The eunuch's smile never flickered, but his eyes glittered with something that was not laughter. "You are
kind to ask, my lord, but my tale is long and sad, and we have treasons to discuss." He drew a
parchment from the sleeve of his robe. "The master of the King's Galley White Hart plots to slip anchor
three days hence to offer his sword and ship to Lord Stannis."
Tyrion sighed. "I suppose we must make some sort of bloody lesson out of the man?"
"Ser Jacelyn could arrange for him to vanish, but a trial before the king would help assure the continued
loyalty of the other captains."
And keep my royal nephew occupied as well. "As you say. Put him down for a dose of Joffrey's
justice."
Varys made a mark on the parchment. "Ser Horas and Ser Hobber Redwyne have bribed a guard to let
them out a postern gate, the night after next. Arrangements have been made for them to sail on the
Pentoshi galley Moonrunner, disguised as oarsmen."
"Can we keep them on those oars for a few years, see how they fancy it?" He smiled. "No, my sister
would be distraught to lose such treasured guests. Inform Ser Jacelyn. Seize the man they bribed and
explain what an honor it is to serve as a brother of the Night's Watch. And have men posted around the
Moonrunner, in case the Redwynes find a second guard short of coin."
"As you will." Another mark on the parchment. "Your man Timett
slew a wineseller's son this evening, at a gambling den on the Street of Silver. He accused him of
cheating at tiles."
"Was it true?"
"Oh, beyond a doubt."
"Then the honest men of the city owe Timett a debt of gratitude. I shall see that he has the king's thanks."
The eunuch gave a nervous giggle and made another mark. "We also have a sudden plague of holy men.
The comet has brought forth all manner of queer priests, preachers, and prophets, it would seem. They
beg in the winesinks and pot-shops and foretell doom and destruction to anyone who stops to listen."
Tyrion shrugged. "We are close on the three hundredth year since Aegon's Landing, I suppose it is only
to be expected. Let them rant."
"They are spreading fear, my lord."
"I thought that was your job."
Varys covered his mouth with his hand. "You are very cruel to say so. One last matter. Lady Tanda
gave a small supper last night. I have the menu and the guest list for your inspection. When the wine was
poured, Lord Gyles rose to lift a cup to the king, and Ser Balon Swann was heard to remark, 'We'll need
three cups for that.'Many laughed . . ."


Tyrion raised a hand. "Enough. Ser Balon made a jest. I am not interested in treasonous table talk, Lord
Varys."
"You are as wise as you are gentle, my lord." The parchment vanished up the eunuch's sleeve. "We both
have much to do. I shall leave you."
When the eunuch had departed, Tyrion sat for a long time watching the candle and wondering how his
sister would take the news of Janos Slynt's dismissal. Not happily, if he was any judge, but beyond
sending an angry protest to Lord Tywin in Harrenhal, he did not see what Cersei could hope to do about
it. Tyrion had the City Watch now, plus a hundred-and-a-half fierce clansmen and a growing force of
sellswords recruited by Bronn. He would seem well protected.
Doubtless Eddard Stark thought the same.
The Red Keep was dark and still when Tyrion left the Small Hall. Bronn was waiting in his solar.
"Slynt?" he asked.
"Lord Janos will be sailing for the Wall on the morning tide. Varys would have me believe that I have
replaced one of Joffrey's men with one of my own. More likely, I have replaced Littlefinger's man with
one belonging to Varys, but so be it."
"You'd best know, Timett killed a man-"
"Varys told me."
The sellsword seemed unsurprised. "The fool figured a one-eyed man would be easier to cheat. Timett
pinned his wrist to the table with a
dagger and ripped out his throat barehanded. He has this trick where he stiffens his fingers-"
"Spare me the grisly details, my supper is sitting badly in my belly," Tyrion said. "How goes your
recruiting?"
"Well enough. Three new men tonight."
"How do you know which ones to hire?"
"I look them over. I question them, to learn where they've fought and how well they lie." Bronn smiled.
"And then I give them a chance to kill me, while I do the same for them."
"Have you killed any?"
"No one we could have used."
"And if one of them kills you?"
"He'll be one you'll want to hire."
Tyrion was a little drunk, and very tired. "Tell me, Bronn. If I told you to kill a babe . . . an infant girl,
say, still at her mother's breast . . . would you do it? Without question?"


"Without question? No." The sellsword rubbed thumb and forefinger together. "I'd ask how much."
And why would I ever need your Allar Deem, Lord Slynt? Tyrion thought. I have a hundred of my own.
He wanted to laugh; he wanted to weep; most of all, he wanted Shae.
CHAPTER 9
ARYA
The road was little more than two ruts through the weeds.
The good part was, with so little traffic there'd be no one to point the finger and say which way they'd
gone. The human flood that had flowed down the kingsroad was only a trickle here.
The bad part was, the road wound back and forth like a snake, tangling with even smaller trails and
sometimes seeming to vanish entirely only to reappear half a league farther on when they had all but given
up hope. Arya hated it. The land was gentle enough, rolling hills and terraced fields interspersed with
meadows and woodlands and little valleys where willows crowded close to slow shallow streams. Even
so, the path was so narrow and crooked that their pace had dropped to a crawl.
It was the wagons that slowed them, lumbering along, axles creaking under the weight of their heavy
loads. A dozen times a day they had to stop to free a wheel that had stuck in a rut, or double up the
teams to climb a muddy slope. Once, in the middle of a dense stand of oak, they came face-to-face with
three men pulling a load of firewood in an ox cart, with no way for either to get around. There had been
nothing for it but to wait while the foresters unhitched their ox, led him through the trees, spun the cart,
hitched the ox up again, and started back the way they'd come. The ox was even slower than the
wagons, so that day they hardly got anywhere at all.
Arya could not help looking over her shoulder, wondering when the gold cloaks would catch them. At
night, she woke at every noise to grab
for Needle's hilt. They never made camp without putting out sentries now, but Arya did not trust them,
especially the orphan boys. They might have done well enough in the alleys of King's Landing, but out
here they were lost. When she was being quiet as a shadow, she could sneak past all of them, flitting out
by starlight to make her water in the woods where no one would see. Once, when Lommy Greenhands
had the watch, she shimmied up an oak and moved from tree to tree until she was right above his head,
and he never saw a thing. She would have jumped down on top of him, but she knew his scream would
wake the whole camp, and Yoren might take a stick to her again.
Lommy and the other orphans all treated the Bull like someone special now because the queen wanted
his head, though he would have none of it. "I never did nothing to no queen," he said angrily. "I did my
work, is all. Bellows and tongs and fetch and carry. I was s'posed to be an armorer, and one day Master
Mott says I got to join the Night's Watch, that's all I know." Then he'd go off to polish his helm. It was a
beautiful helm, rounded and curved, with a slit visor and two great metal bull's horns. Arya would watch
him polish the metal with an oilcloth, shining it so bright you could see the flames of the cookfire reflected
in the steel. Yet he never actually put it on his head.


"I bet he's that traitor's bastard," Lommy said one night, in a hushed voice so Gendry would not hear.
"The wolf lord, the one they nicked on Baelor's steps."
"He is not," Arya declared. My father only had one bastard, and that's Ion. She stalked off into the trees,
wishing she could just saddle her horse and ride home. She was a good horse, a chestnut mare with a
white blaze on her forehead. And Arya had always been a good rider. She could gallop off and never see
any of them, unless she wanted to. Only then she'd have no one to scout ahead of her, or watch behind,
or stand guard while she napped, and when the gold cloaks caught her, she'd be all alone. It was safer to
stay with Yoren and the others.
"We're not far from Gods Eye," the black brother said one morning. "The kingsroad won't be safe till
we're across the Trident. So we'll come up around the lake along the western shore, they're not like to
look for us there." At the next spot where two ruts cut cross each other, he turned the wagons west.
Here farmland gave way to forest, the villages and holdfasts were smaller and farther apart, the hills
higher and the valleys deeper. Food grew harder to come by. In the city, Yoren had loaded up the
wagons with salt fish, hard bread, lard, turnips, sacks of beans and barley, and wheels of yellow cheese,
but every bite of it had been eaten. Forced to live off the land, Yoren turned to Koss and Kurz, who'd
been taken as poachers. He would send them ahead of the column, into the woods, and
come dusk they would be back with a deer slung between them on a pole or a brace of quail swinging
from their belts. The younger boys would be set to picking blackberries along the road, or climbing
fences to fill a sack with apples if they happened upon an orchard.
Arya was a skilled climber and a fast picker, and she liked to go off by herself. One day she came
across a rabbit, purely by happenstance. It was brown and fat, with long ears and a twitchy nose.
Rabbits ran faster than cats, but they couldn't climb trees half so well. She whacked it with her stick and
grabbed it by its ears, and Yoren stewed it with some mushrooms and wild onions. Arya was given a
whole leg, since it was her rabbit. She shared it with Gendry. The rest of them each got a spoonful, even
the three in manacles. Jaqen H'ghar thanked her politely for the treat, and Biter licked the grease off his
dirty fingers with a blissful look, but Rorge, the noseless one, only laughed and said, "There's a hunter
now. Lumpyface Lumpyhead Rabbitkiller."
Outside a holdfast called Briarwhite, some fieldhands surrounded them in a cornfield, demanding coin for
the ears they'd taken. Yoren eyed their scythes and tossed them a few coppers. "Time was, a man in
black was feasted from Dorne to Winterfell, and even high lords called it an honor to shelter him under
their roofs," he said bitterly. "Now cravens like you want hard coin for a bite of wormy apple." He spat.
"It's sweetcorn, better'n a stinking old black bird like you deserves," one of them answered roughly.
"You get out of our field now, and take these sneaks and stabbers with you, or we'll stake you up in the
corn to scare the other crows away."
They roasted the sweetcorn in the husk that night, turning the ears with long forked sticks, and ate it hot
right off the cob. Arya thought it tasted wonderful, but Yoren was too angry to eat. A cloud seemed to
hang over him, ragged and black as his cloak. He paced about the camp restlessly, muttering to himself.
The next day Koss came racing back to warn Yoren of a camp ahead. "Twenty or thirty men, in mail
and halfhelms," he said. "Some of them are cut up bad, and one's dying, from the sound of him. With all
the noise he was making, I got right up close. They got spears and shields, but only one horse, and that's
lame. I think they been there awhile, from the stink of the place."


"See a banner?"
"Spotted treecat, yellow and black, on a mud-brown field."
Yoren folded a sourleaf into his mouth and chewed. "Can't say," he admitted. "Might be one side, might
be t'other. if they're hurt that bad, likely they'd take our mounts no matter who they are. Might be they'd
take more than that. I believe we'll go wide around them." It took them miles out of their way, and cost
them two days at the least, but the old
man said it was cheap at the price. "You'll have time enough on the Wall. The rest o' your lives, most
like. Seems to me there's no rush to get there. "
Arya saw men guarding the fields more and more when they turned north again. Often they stood silently
beside the road, giving a cold eye to anyone who passed. Elsewhere they patrolled on horses, riding their
fence lines with axes strapped to their saddles. At one place, she spotted a man perched up in a dead
tree, with a bow in his hand and a quiver hanging from the branch beside him. The moment he spied
them, he notched an arrow to his bowstring, and never looked away until the last wagon was out of sight.
All the while, Yoren cursed. "Him in his tree, let's see how well he likes it up there when the Others come
to take him. He'll scream for the Watch then, that he will."
A day later Dobber spied a red glow against the evening sky. "Either this road went and turned again, or
that sun's setting in the north."
Yoren climbed a rise to get a better look. "Fire," he announced. He licked a thumb and held it up. "Wind
should blow it away from us. Still bears watching."
And watch it they did. As the world darkened, the fire seemed to grow brighter and brighter, until it
looked as though the whole north was ablaze. From time to time, they could even smell the smoke,
though the wind held steady and the flames never got any closer. By dawn the fire had burned itself out,
but none of them slept very well that night.
it was midday when they arrived at the place where the village had been. The fields were a charred
desolation for miles around, the houses blackened shells. The carcasses of burnt and butchered animals
dotted the ground, under living blankets of carrion crows that rose, cawing furiously, when disturbed.
Smoke still drifted from inside the holdfast. Its timber palisade looked strong from afar, but had not
proved strong enough.
Riding out in front of the wagons on her horse, Arya saw burnt bodies impaled on sharpened stakes
atop the walls, their hands drawn up tight in front of their faces as if to fight off the flames that had
consumed them. Yoren called a halt when they were still some distance off, and told Arya and the other
boys to guard the wagons while he and Murch and Cutjack went in on foot. A flock of ravens rose from
inside the walls when they climbed through the broken gate, and the caged ravens in their wagons called
out to them with quorks and raucous shrieks.
"Should we go in after them?" Arya asked Gendry after Yoren and the others had been gone a long
time.
"Yoren said wait." Gendry's voice sounded hollow. When Arya turned to look, she saw that he was
wearing his helm, all shiny steel and great curving horns.


When they finally returned, Yoren had a little girl in his arms, and Murch and Cutjack were carrying a
woman in a sling made of an old torn quilt. The girl was no older than two and she cried all the time, a
whimpery sound, like something was caught in her throat. Either she couldn't talk yet or she had forgotten
how. The woman's right arm ended in a bloody stump at her elbow, and her eyes didn't seem to see
anything, even when she was looking right at it. She talked, but she only said one thing. "Please," she
cried, over and over. "Please. Please." Rorge thought that was funny. He laughed through the hole in his
face where his nose had been, and Biter started laughing too, until Murch cursed them and told them to
shut up.
Yoren had them fix the woman a place in the back of a wagon. "And be quick about it," he said. "Come
dark, there'll be wolves here, and worse."
"I'm scared," Hot Pie murmured when he saw the one-armed woman thrashing in the wagon.
"Me too," Arya confessed.
He squeezed her shoulder. "I never truly kicked no boy to death, Arry. I just sold my mommy's pies, is
all."
Arya rode as far ahead of the wagons as she dared, so she wouldn't have to hear the little girl crying or
listen to the woman whisper, "Please." She remembered a story Old Nan had told once, about a man
imprisoned in a dark castle by evil giants. He was very brave and smart and he tricked the giants and
escaped . . . but no sooner was he outside the castle than the Others took him, and drank his hot red
blood. Now she knew how he must have felt.
The one-armed woman died at evenfall. Gendry and Cutjack dug her grave on a hillside beneath a
weeping willow. When the wind blew, Arya thought she could hear the long trailing branches whispering,
"Please. Please. Please." The little hairs on the back of her neck rose, and she almost ran from the
graveside.
"No fire tonight," Yoren told them. Supper was a handful of wild radishes Koss found, a cup of dry
beans, water from a nearby brook. The water had a funny taste to it, and Lommy told them it was the
taste of bodies, rotting someplace upstream. Hot Pie would have hit him if old Reysen hadn't pulled them
apart.
Arya drank too much water, just to fill her belly with something. She never thought she'd be able to
sleep, yet somehow she did. When she woke, it was pitch-black and her bladder was full to bursting.
Sleepers huddled all around her, wrapped in blankets and cloaks. Arya found Needle, stood, listened.
She heard the soft footfalls of a sentry, men turning in restless sleep, Rorge's rattling snores, and the
queer hissing sound that
Biter made when he slept. From a different wagon came the steady rhythmic scrape of steel on stone as
Yoren sat, chewing sourleaf and sharpening the edge of his dirk.
Hot Pie was one of the boys on watch. "Where you going?" he asked when he saw Arya heading for the
trees.
Arya waved vaguely at the woods.
"No you're not," Hot Pie said. He had gotten bolder again now that he had a sword on his belt, even
though it was just a shortsword and he handled it like a cleaver. "The old man said for everyone to stay


close tonight."
"I need to make water," Arya explained.
"Well, use that tree right there." He pointed. "You don't know what's out there, Arry. I heard wolves
before."
Yoren wouldn't like it if she fought with him. She tried to look afraid. "Wolves? For true?"
"I heard," he assured her.
"I don't think I need to go after all." She went back to her blanket and pretended to sleep until she heard
Hot Pie's footsteps going away. Then she rolled over and slipped off into the woods on the other side of
the camp, quiet as a shadow. There were sentries out this way too, but Arya had no trouble avoiding
them. just to make sure, she went out twice as far as usual. When she was sure there was no one near,
she skinned down her breeches and squatted to do her business.
She was making water, her clothing tangled about her ankles, when she heard rustling from under the
trees. Hot Pie, she thought in panic, he followed me. Then she saw the eyes shining out from the wood,
bright with reflected moonlight. Her belly clenched tight as she grabbed for Needle, not caring if she
pissed herself, counting eyes, two four eight twelve, a whole pack . . .
One of them came padding out from under the trees. He stared at her, and bared his teeth, and all she
could think was how stupid she'd been and how Hot Pie would gloat when they found her half-eaten
body the next morning. But the wolf turned and raced back into the darkness, and quick as that the eyes
were gone. Trembling, she cleaned herself and laced up and followed a distant scraping sound back to
camp, and to Yoren. Arya climbed up into the wagon beside him, shaken. "Wolves," she whispered
hoarsely. "In the woods."
"Aye. They would be." He never looked at her.
"They scared me."
"Did they?" He spat. "Seems to me your kind was fond o' wolves."
"Nymeria was a direwolf." Arya hugged herself. "That's different. Anyhow, she's gone. Jory and I threw
rocks at her until she ran off, or
else the queen would have killed her." it made her sad to talk about it. "I bet if she'd been in the city, she
wouldn't have let them cut off Father's head."
"Orphan boys got no fathers," Yoren said, "or did you forget that?" The sourleaf had turned his spit red,
so it looked like his mouth was bleeding. "The only wolves we got to fear are the ones wear manskin, like
those who done for that village."
"I wish I was home," she said miserably. She tried so hard to be brave, to be fierce as a wolverine and
all, but sometimes she felt like she was just a little girl after all.
The black brother peeled a fresh sourleaf from the bale in the wagon and stuffed it into his mouth. "Might
be I should of left you where I found you, boy. All of you. Safer in the city, seems to me."


"I don't care. I want to go home."
"Been bringing men to the Wall for close on thirty years." Froth shone on Yoren's lips, like bubbles of
blood. "All that time, I only lost three. Old man died of a fever, city boy got snakebit taking a shit, and
one fool tried to kill me in my sleep and got a red smile for his trouble." He drew the dirk across his
throat, to show her. "Three in thirty years." He spat out the old sourleaf. "A ship now, might have been
wiser. No chance o' finding more men on the way, but still . . . clever man, he'd go by ship, but me . . .
thirty years I been taking this kingsroad." He sheathed his dirk. "Go to sleep, boy. Hear me?"
She did try. Yet as she lay under her thin blanket, she could hear the wolves howling . . . and another
sound, fainter, no more than a whisper on the wind, that might have been screams.
CHAPTER 10
DAVOS
The morning air was dark with the smoke of burning gods.
They were all afire now, Maid and Mother, Warrior and Smith, the Crone with her pearl eyes and the
Father with his gilded beard; even the Stranger, carved to look more animal than human. The old dry
wood and countless layers of paint and varnish blazed with a fierce hungry light. Heat rose shimmering
through the chill air; behind, the gargoyles and stone dragons on the castle walls seemed blurred, as if
Davos were seeing them through a veil of tears. Or as if the beasts were trembling, stirring . . .
"An ill thing," Allard declared, though at least he had the sense to keep his voice low. Dale muttered
agreement.
"Silence," said Davos. "Remember where you are." His sons were good men, but young, and Allard
especially was rash. Had I stayed a smuggler, Allard would have ended on the Wall. Stannis spared him
from that end, something else I owe him . . .
Hundreds had come to the castle gates to bear witness to the burning of the Seven. The smell in the air
was ugly. Even for soldiers, it was hard not to feel uneasy at such an affront to the gods most had
worshiped all their lives.
The red woman walked round the fire three times, praying once in the speech of Asshai, once in High
Valyrian, and once in the Common Tongue. Davos understood only the last. "R'hIlor, come to us in our
darkness," she called. "Lord of Light, we offer you these false gods, these
seven who are one, and him the enemy. Take them and cast your light upon us, for the night is dark and
full of terrors." Queen Selyse echoed the words. Beside her, Stannis watched impassively, his jaw hard
as stone under the blue-black shadow of his tight-cropped beard. He had dressed more richly than was
his wont, as if for the sept.
Dragonstone's sept had been where Aegon the Conqueror knelt to pray the night before he sailed. That
had not saved it from the queen's men. They had overturned the altars, pulled down the statues, and
smashed the stained glass with warhammers. Septon Barre could only curse them, but Ser Hubard


Rambton led his three sons to the sept to defend their gods. The Rambtons had slain four of the queen's
men before the others overwhelmed them. Afterward Guncer Sunglass, mildest and most pious of lords,
told Stannis he could no longer support his claim. Now he shared a sweltering cell with the septon and
Ser Hubard's two surviving sons. The other lords had not been slow to take the lesson.
The gods had never meant much to Davos the smuggler, though like most men he had been known to
make offerings to the Warrior before battle, to the Smith when he launched a ship, and to the Mother
whenever his wife grew great with child. He felt ill as he watched them burn, and not only from the
smoke.
Maester Cressen would have stopped this. The old man had challenged the Lord of Light and been
struck down for his impiety, or so the gossips told each other. Davos knew the truth. He had seen the
maester slip something into the wine cup. Poison. What else could it be? He drank a cup of death to free
Stannis from Melisandre, but somehow her god shielded her. He would gladly have killed the red woman
for that, yet what chance would he have where a maester of the Citadel had failed? He was only a
smuggler raised high, Davos of Flea Bottom, the Onion Knight.
The burning gods cast a pretty light, wreathed in their robes of shifting flame, red and orange and yellow.
Septon Barre had once told Davos how they'd been carved from the masts of the ships that had carried
the first Targaryens from Valyria. Over the centuries, they had been painted and repainted, gilded,
silvered, jeweled. "Their beauty will make them more pleasing to R'hllor," Melisandre said when she told
Stannis to pull them down and drag them out the castle gates.
The Maiden lay athwart the Warrior, her arms widespread as if to embrace him. The Mother seemed
almost to shudder as the flames came licking up her face. A longsword had been thrust through her heart,
and its leather grip was alive with flame. The Father was on the bottom, the first to fall. Davos watched
the hand of the Stranger writhe and curl as the fingers blackened and fell away one by one, reduced to so
much glowing charcoal. Nearby, Lord Celtigar coughed fitfully and covered his
wrinkled face with a square of linen embroidered in red crabs. The Myrmen swapped jokes as they
enjoyed the warmth of the fire, but young Lord Bar Emmon had turned a splotchy grey, and Lord
Velaryon was watching the king rather than the conflagration.
Davos would have given much to know what he was thinking, but one such as Velaryon would never
confide in him. The Lord of the Tides was of the blood of ancient Valyria, and his House had thrice
provided brides for Targaryen princes; Davos Seaworth stank of fish and onions. It was the same with
the other lordlings. He could trust none of them, nor would they ever include him in their private councils.
They scorned his sons as well. My grandsons will joust with theirs, though, and one day their blood may
wed with mine. In time my little black ship will fly as high as Velaryon's seahorse or Celtigar's red crabs.
That is, if Stannis won his throne. If he lost . . .
Everything I am, I owe to him. Stannis had raised him to knighthood. He had given him a place of honor
at his table, a war galley to sail in place of a smuggler's skiff. Dale and Allard captained galleys as well,
Maric was oarmaster on the Fury, Matthos served his father on Black Betha, and the king had taken
Devan as a royal squire. One day he would be knighted, and the two little lads as well. Marya was
mistress of a small keep on Cape Wrath, with servants who called her m'lady, and Davos could hunt red
deer in his own woods. All this he had of Stannis Baratheon, for the price of a few finger joints. It was
just, what he did to me. I had flouted the king's laws all my life. He has earned my loyalty. Davos touched
the little pouch that hung from the leather thong about his neck. His fingers were his luck, and he needed
luck now. As do we all. Lord Stannis most of all.


Pale flames licked at the grey sky. Dark smoke rose, twisting and curling. When the wind pushed it
toward them, men blinked and wept and rubbed their eyes. Allard turned his head away, coughing and
cursing. A taste of things to come, thought Davos. Many and more would burn before this war was done.
Melisandre was robed all in scarlet satin and blood velvet, her eyes as red as the great ruby that
glistened at her throat as if it too were afire. "In ancient books of Asshai it is written that there will come a
day after a long summer when the stars bleed and the cold breath of darkness falls heavy on the world. In
this dread hour a warrior shall draw from the fire a burning sword. And that sword shall be Lightbringer,
the Red Sword of Heroes, and he who clasps it shall be Azor Ahai come again, and the darkness shall
flee before him." She lifted her voice, so it carried out over the gathered host. "Azor Ahai, beloved of
R'hllor! The Warrior of Light, the Son of Fire! Come forth, your sword awaits you! Come forth and take
it into your hand!"
Stannis Baratheon strode forward like a soldier marching into battle. His squires stepped up to attend
him. Davos watched as his son Devan pulled a long padded glove over the king's right hand. The boy
wore a cream-colored doublet with a fiery heart sewn on the breast. Bryen Farring was similarly garbed
as he tied a stiff leather cape around His Grace's neck. Behind, Davos heard a faint clank and clatter of
bells. "Under the sea, smoke rises in bubbles, and flames burn green and blue and black," Patchface sang
somewhere. "I know, I know, oh, oh, oh."
The king plunged into the fire with his teeth clenched, holding the leather cloak before him to keep off the
flames. He went straight to the Mother, grasped the sword with his gloved hand, and wrenched it free of
the burning wood with a single hard jerk. Then he was retreating, the sword held high, jade-green flames
swirling around cherry-red steel. Guards rushed to beat out the cinders that clung to the king's clothing.
"A sword of fire!" shouted Queen Selyse. Ser Axell Florent and the other queen's men took up the cry.
"A sword of fire! It bums! It burns! A sword of fire!"
Melisandre lifted her hands above her head. "Beholdl A sign was promised, and now a sign is seen!
Behold Lightbringer! Azor Ahai has come again! All hail the Warrior of Light! All hail the Son of Fire!"
A ragged wave of shouts gave answer, just as Stannis's glove began to smolder. Cursing, the king thrust
the point of the sword into the damp earth and beat out the flames against his leg.
"Lord, cast your light upon us!" Melisandre called out.
"For the night is dark and full of terrors," Selyse and her queen's men replied. Should I speak the words
as well? Davos wondered. Do I owe Stannis that much? Is this fiery god truly his own? His shortened
fingers twitched.
Stannis peeled off the glove and let it fall to the ground. The gods in the pyre were scarcely recognizable
anymore. The head fell off the Smith with a puff of ash and embers. Melisandre sang in the tongue of
Asshai, her voice rising and falling like the tides of the sea. Stannis untied his singed leather cape and
listened in silence. Thrust in the ground, Lightbringer still glowed ruddy hot, but the flames that clung to
the sword were dwindling and dying.
By the time the song was done, only charwood remained of the gods, and the king's patience had run its
course. He took the queen by the elbow and escorted her back into Dragonstone, leaving Lightbringer
where it stood. The red woman remained a moment to watch as Devan knelt with Byren Farring and
rolled up the burnt and blackened sword in the king's leather cloak. The Red Sword of Heroes looks a


proper mess, thought Davos.
A few of the lords lingered to speak in quiet voices upwind of the fire. They fell silent when they saw
Davos looking at them. Should Stannis fall, they will pull me down in an instant. Neither was he counted
one of the queen's men, that group of ambitious knights and minor lordlings who had given themselves to
this Lord of Light and so won the favor and patronage of Lady-no, Queen, remember?-Selyse.
The fire had started to dwindle by the time Melisandre and the squires departed with the precious
sword. Davos and his sons joined the crowd making its way down to the shore and the waiting ships.
"Devan acquitted himself well," he said as they went.
"He fetched the glove without dropping it, yes," said Dale.
Allard nodded. "That badge on Devan's doublet, the fiery heart, what was that? The Baratheon sigil is a
crowned stag."
"A lord can choose more than one badge," Davos said.
Dale smiled. "A black ship and an onion, Father?"
Allard kicked at a stone. "The Others take our onion . . . and that flaming heart. It was an ill thing to burn
the Seven."
"When did you grow so devout?" Davos said. "What does a smuggler's son know of the doings of
gods?"
"I'm a knight's son, Father. If you won't remember, why should they? "
"A knight's son, but not a knight," said Davos. "Nor will you ever be, if you meddle in affairs that do not
concern you. Stannis is our rightful king, it is not for us to question him. We sail his ships and do his
bidding. That is all."
"As to that, Father," Dale said, "I mislike these water casks they've given me for Wraith. Green pine.
The water will spoil on a voyage of any length."
"I got the same for Lady Marya," said Allard. "The queen's men have laid claim to all the seasoned
wood."
"I will speak to the king about it," Davos promised. Better it come from him than from Allard. His sons
were good fighters and better sailors, but they did not know how to talk to lords. They were lowborn,
even as I was, but they do not like to recall that. When they look at our banner, all they see is a tall black
ship flying on the wind. They close their eyes to the onion.
The port was as crowded as Davos had ever known it. Every dock teemed with sailors loading
provisions, and every inn was packed with soldiers dicing or drinking or looking for a whore . . . a vain
search, since Stannis permitted none on his island. Ships lined the strand; war galleys and fishing vessels,
stout carracks and fat-bottomed cogs. The best berths had been taken by the largest vessels: Stannis's
flagship Fury
rocking between Lord Steffon and Stag of the Sea, Lord Velaryon's silverhulled Pride of Driftmark and
her three sisters, Lord Celtigar's ornate Red Claw, the ponderous Swordfish with her long iron prow.


Out to sea at anchor rode Salladhor Saan's great Valyrian amongst the striped hulls of two dozen smaller
Lysene galleys.
A weathered little inn sat on the end of the stone pier where Black Betha, Wraith, and Lady Marya
shared mooring space with a half-dozen other galleys of one hundred oars or less. Davos had a thirst. He
took his leave of his sons and turned his steps toward the inn. Out front squatted a waist-high gargoyle,
so eroded by rain and salt that his features were all but obliterated. He and Davos were old friends,
though. He gave a pat to the stone head as he went in. "Luck," he murmured.
Across the noisy common room, Salladhor Saan sat eating grapes from a wooden bowl. When he spied
Davos, he beckoned him closer. "Ser knight, come sit with me. Eat a grape. Eat two. They are
marvelously sweet." The Lyseni was a sleek, smiling man whose flamboyance was a byword on both
sides of the narrow sea. Today he wore flashing cloth-ofsilver, with dagged sleeves so long the ends of
them pooled on the floor. His buttons were carved jade monkeys, and atop his wispy white curls
perched a jaunty green cap decorated with a fan of peacock feathers.
Davos threaded his way through the tables to a chair. In the days before his knighthood, he had often
bought cargoes from Salladhor Saan. The Lyseni was a smuggler himself, as well as a trader, a banker, a
notorious pirate, and the self-styled Prince of the Narrow Sea. When a pirate grows rich enough, they
make him a prince. It had been Davos who had made the journey to Lys to recruit the old rogue to Lord
Stannis's cause.
"You did not see the gods burn, my lord?" he asked.
"The red priests have a great temple on Lys. Always they are burning this and burning that, crying out to
their R'hllor. They bore me with their fires. Soon they will bore King Stannis too, it is to be hoped." He
seemed utterly unconcerned that someone might overhear him, eating his grapes and dribbling the seeds
out onto his lip, flicking them off with a finger. "My Bird of Thousand Colors came in yesterday, good
ser. She is not a warship, no, but a trader, and she paid a call on King's Landing. Are you sure you will
not have a grape? Children go hungry in the city, it is said." He dangled the grapes before Davos and
smiled.
"It's ale I need, and news."
"The men of Westeros are ever rushing," complained Salladhor Saan. "What good is this, I ask you? He
who hurries through life hurries to his grave." He belched. "The Lord of Casterly Rock has sent his dwarf
to see to King's Landing. Perhaps he hopes that his ugly face will frighten off attackers, eh? Or that we
will laugh ourselves dead when the Imp capers
on the battlements, who can say? The dwarf has chased off the lout who ruled the gold cloaks and put in
his place a knight with an iron hand." He plucked a grape, and squeezed it between thumb and forefinger
until the skin burst. juice ran down between his fingers.
A serving girl pushed her way through, swatting at the hands that groped her as she passed. Davos
ordered a tankard of ale, turned back to Saan, and said, "How well is the city defended?"
The other shrugged. "The walls are high and strong, but who will man them? They are building scorpions
and spitfires, oh, yes, but the men in the golden cloaks are too few and too green, and there are no
others. A swift strike, like a hawk plummeting at a hare, and the great city will be ours. Grant us wind to
fill our sails, and your king could sit upon his Iron Throne by evenfall on the morrow. We could dress the
dwarf in motley and prick his little cheeks with the points of our spears to make him dance for us, and


mayhaps your goodly king would make me a gift of the beautiful Queen Cersei to warm my bed for a
night. I have been too long away from my wives, and all in his service."
"Pirate," said Davos. "You have no wives, only concubines, and you have been well paid for every day
and every ship."
"Only in promises," said Salladhor Saan mournfully. "Good ser, it is gold I crave, not words on papers."
He popped a grape into his mouth.
"You'll have your gold when we take the treasury in King's Landing. No man in the Seven Kingdoms is
more honorable than Stannis Baratheon. He will keep his word." Even as Davos spoke, he thought, This
world is twisted beyond hope, when lowborn smugglers must vouch for the honor of kings.
"So he has said and said. And so I say, let us do this thing. Even these grapes could be no more ripe
than that city, my old friend."
The serving girl returned with his ale. Davos gave her a copper. "Might be we could take King's
Landing, as you say," he said as he lifted the tankard, "but how long would we hold it? Tywin Lannister is
known to be at Harrenhal with a great host, and Lord Renly . . ."
"Ah, yes, the young brother," said Salladhor Saan. "That part is not so good, my friend. King Renly
bestirs himself. No, here he is Lord Renly, my pardons. So many kings, my tongue grows weary of the
word. The brother Renly has left Highgarden with his fair young queen, his flowered lords and shining
knights, and a mighty host of foot. He marches up your road of roses toward the very same great city we
were speaking of."
"He takes his bride?"
The other shrugged. "He did not tell me why. Perhaps he is loath to part with the warm burrow between
her thighs, even for a night. Or perhaps he is that certain of his victory."
"The king must be told."
"I have attended to it, good ser. Though His Grace frowns so whenever he does see me that I tremble to
come before him. Do you think he would like me better if I wore a hair shirt and never smiled? Well, I
will not do it. I am an honest man, he must suffer me in silk and samite. Or else I shall take my ships
where I am better loved. That sword was not Lightbringer, my friend."
The sudden shift in subject left Davos uneasy. "Sword?"
"A sword plucked from fire, yes. Men tell me things, it is my pleasant smile. How shall a burnt sword
serve Stannis?"
"A buming sword," corrected Davos.
"Burnt," said Salladhor Saan, "and be glad of that, my friend. Do you know the tale of the forging of
Lightbringer? I shall tell it to you. It was a time when darkness lay heavy on the world. To oppose it, the
hero must have a hero's blade, oh, like none that had ever been. And so for thirty days and thirty nights
Azor Ahai labored sleepless in the temple, forging a blade in the sacred fires. Heat and hammer and fold,
heat and hammer and fold, oh, yes, until the sword was done. Yet when he plunged it into water to
temper the steel it burst asunder.


"Being a hero, it was not for him to shrug and go in search of excellent grapes such as these, so again he
began. The second time it took him fifty days and fifty nights, and this sword seemed even finer than the
first. Azor Ahai captured a lion, to temper the blade by plunging it through the beast's red heart, but once
more the steel shattered and split. Great was his woe and great was his sorrow then, for he knew what
he must do.
"A hundred days and a hundred nights he labored on the third blade, and as it glowed white-hot in the
sacred fires, he summoned his wife. 'Nissa Nissa' he said to her, for that was her name, 'bare your
breast, and know that I love you best of all that is in this world.' She did this thing, why I cannot say, and
Azor Ahai thrust the smoking sword through her living heart. It is said that her cry of anguish and ecstasy
left a crack across the face of the moon, but her blood and her soul and her strength and her courage all
went into the steel. Such is the tale of the forging of Lightbringer, the Red Sword of Heroes.
"Now do you see my meaning? Be glad that it is just a burnt sword that His Grace pulled from that fire.
Too much light can hurt the eyes, my friend, and fire bums." Salladhor Saan finished the last grape and
smacked his lips. "When do you think the king will bid us sail, good ser? "
"Soon, I think," said Davos, "if his god wills it."
"His god, ser friend? Not yours? Where is the god of Ser Davos Seaworth, knight of the onion ship?"
Davos sipped his ale to give himself a moment. The inn is crowded, and you are not Salladhor Saan, he
reminded himself. Be careful how you answer. "King Stannis is my god. He made me and blessed me
with his trust."
"I will remember." Salladhor Saan got to his feet. "My pardons. These grapes have given me a hunger,
and dinner awaits on my Valyrian. Minced lamb with pepper and roasted gull stuffed with mushrooms
and fennel and onion. Soon we shall eat together in King's Landing, yes? In the Red Keep we shall feast,
while the dwarf sings us a jolly tune. When you speak to King Stannis, mention if you would that he will
owe me another thirty thousand dragons come the black of the moon. He ought to have given those gods
to me. They were too beautiful to burn, and might have brought a noble price in Pentos or Myr. Well, if
he grants me Queen Cersei for a night I shall forgive him." The Lyseni clapped Davos on the back, and
swaggered from the inn as if he owned it.
Ser Davos Seaworth lingered over his tankard for a good while, thinking. A year ago, he had been with
Stannis in King's Landing when King Robert staged a tourney for Prince Joffrey's name day. He
remembered the red priest Thoros of Myr, and the flaming sword he had wielded in the melee. The man
had made for a colorful spectacle, his red robes flapping while his blade writhed with pale green flames,
but everyone knew there was no true magic to it, and in the end his fire had guttered out and Bronze
Yohn Royce had brained him with a common mace.
A true sword of fire, now, that would be a wonder to behold. Yet at such a cost . . . When he thought of
Nissa Nissa, it was his own Marya he pictured, a good-natured plump woman with sagging breasts and a
kindly smile, the best woman in the world. He tried to picture himself driving a sword through her, and
shuddered. I am not made of the stuff of heroes, he decided. If that was the price of a magic sword, it
was more than he cared to pay.
Davos finished his ale, pushed away the tankard, and left the inn. On the way out he patted the gargoyle
on the head and muttered, "Luck." They would all need it.


It was well after dark when Devan came down to Black Betha, leading a snow-white palfrey. "My lord
father," he announced, "His Grace commands you to attend him in the Chamber of the Painted Table.
You are to ride the horse and come at once."
It was good to see Devan looking so splendid in his squire's raiment, but the summons made Davos
uneasy. Will he bid us sail? he wondered. Salladhor Saan was not the only captain who felt that King's
Landing was ripe for an attack, but a smuggler must learn patience. We have no hope of victory. I said as
much to Maester Cressen, the day I returned to
Dragonstone, and nothing has changed. We are too few, the foes too many. ff we dip our oars, we die.
Nonetheless, he climbed onto the horse.
When Davos arrived at the Stone Drum, a dozen highborn knights and great bannermen were just
leaving. Lords Celtigar and Velaryon each gave him a curt nod and walked on while the others ignored
him utterly, but Ser Axell Florent stopped for a word.
Queen Selyse's uncle was a keg of a man with thick arms and bandy legs. He had the prominent ears of
a Florent, even larger than his niece's. The coarse hair that sprouted from his did not stop him hearing
most of what went on in the castle. For ten years Ser Axell had served as castelIan of Dragonstone while
Stannis sat on Robert's council in King's Landing, but of late he had emerged as the foremost of the
queen's men. "Ser Davos, it is good to see you, as ever," he said.
"And you, my lord."
"I made note of you this morning as well. The false gods burned with a merry light, did they not?"
"They burned brightly." Davos did not trust this man, for all his courtesy. House Florent had declared for
Renly.
"The Lady Melisandre tells us that sometimes R'hllor permits his faithful servants to glimpse the future in
flames. It seemed to me as I watched the fire this morning that I was looking at a dozen beautiful dancers,
maidens garbed in yellow silk spinning and swirling before a great king. I think it was a true vision, ser. A
glimpse of the glory that awaits His Grace after we take King's Landing and the throne that is his by
rights."
Stannis has no taste for such dancing, Davos thought, but he dared not offend the queen's uncle. "I saw
only fire," he said, "but the smoke was making my eyes water. You must pardon me, ser, the king
awaits." He pushed past, wondering why Ser Axell had troubled himself. He is a queen's man and I am
the king's.
Stannis sat at his Painted Table with Maester Pylos at his shoulder, an untidy pile of papers before them.
"Ser," the king said when Davos entered, "come have a look at this letter."
Obediently, he selected a paper at random. "It looks handsome enough, Your Grace, but I fear I cannot
read the words." Davos could decipher maps and charts as well as any, but letters and other writings
were beyond his powers. But my Devan has learned his letters, and young Steffon and Stannis as well.
"I'd forgotten." A furrow of irritation showed between the king's brows. "Pylos, read it to him."
"Your Grace." The maester took up one of the parchments and cleared his throat. "All men know me for
the trueborn son of Steffon Baratheon,


Lord of Storm's End, by his lady wife Cassana of House Estermont. I declare upon the honor of my
House that my beloved brother Robert, our late king, left no trueborn issue of his body, the boy foffrey,
the boy Tommen, and the girl Myrcella being abominations born of incest between Cersei Lannister and
her brother faime the Kingslayer. By right of birth and blood, I do this day lay claim to the Iron Throne of
the Seven Kingdoms of Westeros. Let all true men declare their loyalty. Done in the Light of the Lord,
under the sign and seal of Stannis of House Baratheon, the First of His Name, King of the Andals, the
Rhoynar, and the First Men, and Lord of the Seven Kingdoms. " The parchment rustled softly as Pylos
laid it down.
"Make it Ser Jaime the Kingslayer henceforth," Stannis said, frowning. "Whatever else the man may be,
he remains a knight. I don't know that we ought to call Robert my beloved brother either. He loved me
no more than he had to, nor I him."
"A harmless courtesy, Your Grace," Pylos said.
"A lie. Take it out." Stannis turned to Davos. "The maester tells me that we have one hundred seventeen
ravens on hand. I mean to use them all. One hundred seventeen ravens will carry one hundred seventeen
copies of my letter to every corner of the realm, from the Arbor to the Wall. Perhaps a hundred will win
through against storm and hawk and arrow. If so, a hundred maesters will read my words to as many
lords in as many solars and bedchambers . . . and then the letters will like as not be consigned to the fire,
and lips pledged to silence. These great lords love Joffrey, or Renly, or Robb Stark. I am their rightful
king, but they will deny me if they can. So I have need of you."
"I am yours to command, my king. As ever."
Stannis nodded. "I mean for you to sail Black Betha north, to Gulltown, the Fingers, the Three Sisters,
even White Harbor. Your son Dale will go south in Wraith, past Cape Wrath and the Broken Arm, all
along the coast of Dorne as far as the Arbor. Each of you will carry a chest of letters, and you will deliver
one to every port and holdfast and fishing village. Nail them to the doors of septs and inns for every man
to read who can."
Davos said, "That will be few enough."
"Ser Davos speaks truly, Your Grace," said Maester Pylos. "It would be better to have the letters read
aloud."
"Better, but more dangerous," said Stannis. "These words will not be kindly received."
"Give me knights to do the reading," Davos said. "That will carry more weight than anything I might say."
Stannis seemed well satisfied with that. "I can give you such men, yes. I have a hundred knights who
would sooner read than fight. Be open
where you can and stealthy where you must. Use every smuggler's trick you know, the black sails, the
hidden coves, whatever it requires. If you run short of letters, capture a few septons and set them to
copying out more. I mean to use your second son as well. He will take Lady Marya across the narrow
sea, to Braavos and the other Free Cities, to deliver other letters to the men who rule there. The world
will know of my claim, and of Cersei's infamy."
You can tell them, Davos thought, but will they believe? He glanced thoughtfully at Maester Pylos. The


king caught the look. "Maester, perhaps you ought get to your writing. We will need a great many letters,
and soon."
"As you will." Pylos bowed, and took his leave.
The king waited until he was gone before he said, "What is it you would not say in the presence of my
maester, Davos?"
"My liege, Pylos is pleasant enough, but I cannot see the chain about his neck without mourning for
Maester Cressen."
"Is it his fault the old man died?" Stannis glanced into the fire. "I never wanted Cressen at that feast. He'd
angered me, yes, he'd given me bad counsel, but I did not want him dead. I'd hoped he might be granted
a few years of ease and comfort. He had earned that much, at least, but"he ground his teeth together-"but
he died. And Pylos serves me ably."
"Pylos is the least of it. The letter . . . What did your lords make of it, I wonder?"
Stannis snorted. "Celtigar pronounced it admirable. If I showed him the contents of my privy, he would
declare that admirable as well. The others bobbed their heads up and down like a flock of geese, all but
Velaryon, who said that steel would decide the matter, not words on parchment. As if I had never
suspected. The Others take my lords, I'll hear your views."
"Your words were blunt and strong."
"And true."
"And true. Yet you have no proof. Of this incest. No more than you did a year ago."
"There's proof of a sort at Storm's End. Robert's bastard. The one he fathered on my wedding night, in
the very bed they'd made up for me and my bride. Delena was a Florent, and a maiden when he took
her, so Robert acknowledged the babe. Edric Storm, they call him. He is said to be the very image of my
brother. If men were to see him, and then look again at Joffrey and Tommen, they could not help but
wonder, I would think.,,
"Yet how are men to see him, if he is at Storm's End?"
Stannis drummed his fingers on the Painted Table. "It is a difficulty. One of many." He raised his eyes.
"You have more to say about the
letter. Well, get on with it. I did not make you a knight so you could learn to mouth empty courtesies. I
have my lords for that. Say what you would say, Davos."
Davos bowed his head. "There was a phrase at the end. How did it go? Done in the Light of the Lord . .
."
"Yes." The king's jaw was clenched.
"Your people will mislike those words."
"As you did?" said Stannis sharply.


"If you were to say instead, Done in the sight of gods and men, or By the grace of the gods old and new
. . ."
"Have you gone devout on me, smuggler?"
"That was to be my question for you, my liege."
"Was it now? It sounds as though you love my new god no more than you love my new maester."
"I do not know this Lord of Light," Davos admitted, "but I knew the gods we burned this morning. The
Smith has kept my ships safe, while the Mother has given me seven strong sons."
"Your wife has given you seven strong sons. Do you pray to her? It was wood we burned this morning."
"That may be so," Davos said, "but when I was a boy in Flea Bottom begging for a copper, sometimes
the septons would feed me."
"I feed you now."
"You have given me an honored place at your table. And in return I give you truth. Your people will not
love you if you take from them the gods they have always worshiped, and give them one whose very
name sounds queer on their tongues."
Stannis stood abruptly. "R'hllor. Why is that so hard? They will not love me, you say? When have they
ever loved me? How can I lose something I have never owned?" He moved to the south window to gaze
out at the moonlit sea. "I stopped believing in gods the day I saw the Windproud break up across the
bay. Any gods so monstrous as to drown my mother and father would never have my worship, I vowed.
In King's Landing, the High Septon would prattle at me of how all justice and goodness flowed from the
Seven, but all I ever saw of either was made by men."
"If you do not believe in gods-"
"-why trouble with this new one?" Stannis broke in. "I have asked myself as well. I know little and care
less of gods, but the red priestess has power."
Yes, but what sort of power? "Cressen had wisdom."
"I trusted in his wisdom and your wiles, and what did they avail me, smuggler? The storm lords sent you
packing. I went to them a beggar and they laughed at me. Well, there will be no more begging, and no
more
laughing either. The Iron Throne is mine by rights, but how am I to take it? There are four kings in the
realm, and three of them have more men and more gold than I do. I have ships . . . and I have her. The
red woman. Half my knights are afraid even to say her name, did you know? If she can do nothing else, a
sorceress who can inspire such dread in grown men is not to be despised. A frightened man is a beaten
man. And perhaps she can do more. I mean to find out.
"When I was a lad I found an injured goshawk and nursed her back to health. Proudwing, I named her.
She would perch on my shoulder and flutter from room to room after me and take food from my hand,
but she would not soar. Time and again I would take her hawking, but she never flew higher than the


treetops. Robert called her Weakwing. He owned a gyrfalcon named Thunderclap who never missed her
strike. One day our great-uncle Ser Harbert told me to try a different bird. I was making a fool of myself
with Proudwing, he said, and he was right." Stannis Baratheon turned away from the window, and the
ghosts who moved upon the southern sea. "The Seven have never brought me so much as a sparrow. It
is time I tried another hawk, Davos. A red hawk."
CHAPTER 11
THEON
There was no safe anchorage at Pyke, but Theon Greyjoy wished to look on his father's castle from the
sea, to see it as he had seen it last, ten years before, when Robert Baratheon's war galley had borne him
away to be a ward of Eddard Stark. On that day he had stood beside the rail, listening to the stroke of
the oars and the pounding of the master's drum while he watched Pyke dwindle in the distance. Now he
wanted to see it grow larger, to rise from the sea before him.
Obedient to his wishes, the Myraham beat her way past the point with her sails snapping and her captain
cursing the wind and his crew and the follies of highborn lordlings. Theon drew the hood of his cloak up
against the spray, and looked for home.
The shore was all sharp rocks and glowering cliffs, and the castle seemed one with the rest, its towers
and walls and bridges quarried from the same grey-black stone, wet by the same salt waves, festooned
with the same spreading patches of dark green lichen, speckled by the droppings of the same seabirds.
The point of land on which the Greyjoys had raised their fortress had once thrust like a sword into the
bowels of the ocean, but the waves had hammered at it day and night until the land broke and shattered,
thousands of years past. All that remained were three bare and barren islands and a dozen towering
stacks of rock that rose from the water like the pillars of some sea god's temple, while the angry waves
foamed and crashed among them.
Drear, dark, forbidding, Pyke stood atop those islands and pillars,
almost a part of them, its curtain wall closing off the headland around the foot of the great stone bridge
that leapt from the clifftop to the largest islet, dominated by the massive bulk of the Great Keep. Farther
out were the Kitchen Keep and the Bloody Keep, each on its own island. Towers and outbuildings clung
to the stacks beyond, linked to each other by covered archways when the pillars stood close, by long
swaying walks of wood and rope when they did not.
The Sea Tower rose from the outmost island at the point of the broken sword, the oldest part of the
castle, round and tall, the sheer-sided pillar on which it stood half-eaten through by the endless battering
of the waves. The base of the tower was white from centuries of salt spray, the upper stories green from
the lichen that crawled over it like a thick blanket, the jagged crown black with soot from its nightly
watchfire.
Above the Sea Tower snapped his father's banner. The Myraham was too far off for Theon to see more
than the cloth itself, but he knew the device it bore: the golden kraken of House Greyjoy, arms writhing
and reaching against a black field. The banner streamed from an iron mast, shivering and twisting as the
wind gusted, like a bird struggling to take flight. And here at least the direwolf of Stark did not fly above,


casting its shadow down upon the Greyjoy kraken.
Theon had never seen a more stirring sight. In the sky behind the castle, the fine red tail of the comet was
visible through thin, scuttling clouds. All the way from Riverrun to Seagard, the Mallisters had argued
about its meaning. It is my comet, Theon told himself, sliding a hand into his fur-lined cloak to touch the
oilskin pouch snug in its pocket. Inside was the letter Robb Stark had given him, paper as good as a
crown.
"Does the castle look as you remember it, milord?" the captain's daughter asked as she pressed herself
against his arm.
"It looks smaller," Theon confessed, "though perhaps that is only the distance." The Myraham was a
fat-bellied southron merchanter up from Oldtown, carrying wine and cloth and seed to trade for iron ore.
Her captain was a fat-bellied southron merchanter as well, and the stony sea that foamed at the feet of
the castle made his plump lips quiver, so he stayed well out, farther than Theon would have liked. An
ironborn captain in a longship would have taken them along the cliffs and under the high bridge that
spanned the gap between the gatehouse and the Great Keep, but this plump Oldtowner had neither the
craft, the crew, nor the courage to attempt such a thing. So they sailed past at a safe distance, and Theon
must content himself with seeing Pyke from afar. Even so, the Myraham had to struggle mightily to keep
itself off those rocks.
"It must be windy there," the captain's daughter observed.
He laughed. "Windy and cold and damp. A miserable hard place, in
truth . . . but my lord father once told me that hard places breed hard men, and hard men rule the
world."
The captain's face was as green as the sea when he came bowing up to Theon and asked, "May we
make for port now, milord?"
"You may," Theon said, a faint smile playing about his lips. The promise of gold had turned the
Oldtowner into a shameless lickspittle. It would have been a much different voyage if a longship from the
islands had been waiting at Seagard as he'd hoped. Ironborn captains were proud and willful, and did not
go in awe of a man's blood. The islands were too small for awe, and a longship smaller still. If every
captain was a king aboard his own ship, as was often said, it was small wonder they named the islands
the land of ten thousand kings. And when you have seen your kings shit over the rail and turn green in a
storm, it was hard to bend the knee and pretend they were gods. "The Drowned God makes men," old
King Urron Redhand had once said, thousands of years ago, "but it's men who make crowns."
A longship would have made the crossing in half the time as well. The Myraham was a wallowing tub, if
truth be told, and he would not care to be aboard her in a storm. Still, Theon could not be too unhappy.
He was here, undrowned, and the voyage had offered certain other amusements. He put an arm around
the captain's daughter. "Summon me when we make Lordsport," he told her father. "We'll be below, in
my cabin." He led the girl away aft, while her father watched them go in sullen silence.
The cabin was the captain's, in truth, but it had been turned over to Theon's use when they sailed from
Seagard. The captain's daughter had not been turned over to his use, but she had come to his bed
willingly enough all the same. A cup of wine, a few whispers, and there she was. The girl was a shade
plump for his taste, with skin as splotchy as oatmeal, but her breasts filled his hands nicely and she had
been a maiden the first time he took her. That was surprising at her age, but Theon found it diverting. He


did not think the captain approved, and that was amusing as well, watching the man struggle to swallow
his outrage while performing his courtesies to the high lord, the rich purse of gold he'd been promised
never far from his thoughts.
As Theon shrugged out of his wet cloak, the girl said, "You must be so happy to see your home again,
milord. How many years have you been away? "
"Ten, or close as makes no matter," he told her. "I was a boy of ten when I was taken to Winterfell. as a
ward of Eddard Stark." A ward in name, a hostage in truth. Half his days a hostage . . . but no longer.
His life was his own again, and nowhere a Stark to be seen. He drew the captain's daughter close and
kissed her on her ear. "Take off your cloak."
She dropped her eyes, suddenly shy, but did as he bid her. When the heavy garment, sodden with
spray, fell from her shoulders to the deck, she gave him a little bow and smiled anxiously. She looked
rather stupid when she smiled, but he had never required a woman to be clever. "Come here," he told
her.
She did. "I have never seen the Iron Islands."
"Count yourself fortunate." Theon stroked her hair. it was fine and dark, though the wind had made a
tangle of it. "The islands are stern and stony places, scant of comfort and bleak of prospect. Death is
never far here, and life is mean and meager. Men spend their nights drinking ale and arguing over whose
lot is worse, the fisherfolk who fight the sea or the farmers who try and scratch a crop from the poor thin
soil. If truth be told, the miners have it worse than either, breaking their backs down in the dark, and for
what? Iron, lead, tin, those are our treasures. Small wonder the ironmen of old turned to raiding."
The stupid girl did not seem to be listening. "I could go ashore with you," she said. "I would, if it please
you . . ."
"You could go ashore," Theon agreed, squeezing her breast, "but not with me, I fear."
"I'd work in your castle, milord. I can clean fish and bake bread and churn butter. Father says my
peppercrab stew is the best he's ever tasted. You could find me a place in your kitchens and I could
make you peppercrab stew."
"And warm my bed by night?" He reached for the laces of her bodice and began to undo them, his
fingers deft and practiced. "Once I might have carried you home as a prize, and kept you to wife whether
you willed it or no. The ironmen of old did such things. A man had his rock wife, his true bride, ironborn
like himself, but he had his salt wives too, women captured on raids."
The girl's eyes grew wide, and not because he had bared her breasts. "I would be your salt wife,
milord."
"I fear those days are gone." Theon's finger circled one heavy teat, spiraling in toward the fat brown
nipple. "No longer may we ride the wind with fire and sword, taking what we want. Now we scratch in
the ground and toss lines in the sea like other men, and count ourselves lucky if we have salt cod and
porridge enough to get us through a winter." He took her nipple in his mouth, and bit it until she gasped.
"You can put it in me again, if it please you," she whispered in his ear as he sucked.
When he raised his head from her breast, the skin was dark red where his mouth had marked her. "It


would please me to teach you something new. Unlace me and pleasure me with your mouth."
"With my mouth?"
His thumb brushed lightly over her full lips. "It's what those lips were made for, sweetling. If you were
my salt wife, you'd do as I command."
She was timid at first, but learned quickly for such a stupid girl, which pleased him. Her mouth was as
wet and sweet as her cunt, and this way he did not have to listen to her mindless prattle. Once I would
have kept her as a salt wife in truth, he thought to himself as he slid his fingers through her tangled hair.
Once. When we still kept the Old Way, lived by the axe instead of the pick, taking what we would, be it
wealth, women, or glory. In those days, the ironborn did not work mines; that was labor for the captives
brought back from the hostings, and so too the sorry business of farming and tending goats and sheep.
War was an ironman's proper trade. The Drowned God had made them to reave and rape, to carve out
kingdoms and write their names in fire and blood and song.
Aegon the Dragon had destroyed the Old Way when he burned Black Harren, gave Harren's kingdom
back to the weakling rivermen, and reduced the Iron Islands to an insignificant backwater of a much
greater realm. Yet the old red tales were still told around driftwood fires and smoky hearths all across the
islands, even behind the high stone halls of Pyke. Theon's father numbered among his titles the style of
Lord Reaper, and the Greyjoy words boasted that We Do Not Sow
It had been to bring back the Old Way more than for the empty vanity of a crown that Lord Balon had
staged his great rebellion. Robert Baratheon had written a bloody end to that hope, with the help of his
friend Eddard Stark, but both men were dead now. Mere boys ruled in their stead, and the realm that
Aegon the Conqueror had forged was smashed and sundered. This is the season, Theon thought as the
captain's daughter slid her lips up and down the length of him, the season, the year, the day, and I am the
man. He smiled crookedly, wondering what his father would say when Theon told him that he, the
last-born, babe and hostage, he had succeeded where Lord Balon himself had failed.
His climax came on him sudden as a storm, and he filled the girl's mouth with his seed. Startled, she tried
to pull away, but Theon held her tight by the hair. Afterward, she crawled up beside him. "Did I please
milord? "
"Well enough," he told her.
"It tasted salty," she murmured.
"Like the sea?"
She nodded. "I have always loved the sea, milord."
"As I have," he said, rolling her nipple idly between his fingers. It was true. The sea meant freedom to the
men of the Iron Islands. He had forgotten that until the Myraham had raised sail at Seagard. The sounds
brought old feelings back; the creak of wood and rope, the captain's
shouted commands, the snap of the sails as the wind filled them, each as familiar as the beating of his
own heart, and as comforting. I must remember this, Theon vowed to himself. I must never go far from
the sea again.
"Take me with you, milord," the captain's daughter begged. "I don't need to go to your castle. I can stay


in some town, and be your salt wife." She reached out to stroke his cheek.
Theon Greyjoy pushed her hand aside and climbed off the bunk. "My place is Pyke, and yours is on this
ship."
"I can't stay here now."
He laced up his breeches. "Why not?"
"My father," she told him. "Once you're gone, he'll punish me, milord. He'll call me names and hit me."
Theon swept his cloak off its peg and over his shoulders. "Fathers are like that," he admitted as he
pinned the folds with a silver clasp. "Tell him he should be pleased. As many times as I've fucked you,
you're likely with child. It's not every man who has the honor of raising a king's bastard." She looked at
him stupidly, so he left her there.
The Myraham was rounding a wooded point. Below the pine-clad bluffs, a dozen fishing boats were
pulling in their nets. The big cog stayed well out from them, tacking. Theon moved to the bow for a better
view. He saw the castle first, the stronghold of the Botleys. When he was a boy it had been timber and
wattle, but Robert Baratheon had razed that structure to the ground. Lord Sawane had rebuilt in stone,
for now a small square keep crowned the hill. Pale green flags drooped from the squat corner towers,
each emblazoned with a shoal of silvery fish.
Beneath the dubious protection of the fish-ridden little castle lay the village of Lordsport, its harbor
aswarm with ships. When last he'd seen Lordsport, it had been a smoking wasteland, the skeletons of
burnt longships and smashed galleys 'littering the stony shore like the bones of dead leviathans, the houses
no more than broken walls and cold ashes. After ten years, few traces of the war remained. The
smallfolk had built new hovels with the stones of the old, and cut fresh sod for their roofs. A new inn had
risen beside the landing, twice the size of the old one, with a lower story of cut stone and two upper
stories of timber. The sept beyond had never been rebuilt, though; only a seven-sided foundation
remained where it had stood. Robert Baratheon's fury had soured the ironmen's taste for the new gods, it
would seem.
Theon was more interested in ships than gods. Among the masts of countless fishing boats, he spied a
Tyroshi trading galley off-loading beside a lumbering Ibbenese cog with her black-tarred hull. A great
number of longships, fifty or sixty at the least, stood out to sea or lay beached on the pebbled shore to
the north. Some of the sails bore devices from the
other islands; the blood moon of Wynch, Lord Goodbrother's banded black warhorn Harlaw's silver
scythe. Theon searched for his uncle Euron's Silence. Of that lean and terrible red ship he saw no sign,
but his father's Great Kraken was there, her bow ornamented with a grey iron ram in the shape of its
namesake.
Had Lord Balon anticipated him and called the Greyjoy banners? His hand went inside his cloak again,
to the oilskin pouch. No one knew of his letter but Robb Stark; they were no fools, to entrust their
secrets to a bird. Still, Lord Balon was no fool either. He might well have guessed why his son was
coming home at long last, and acted accordingly.
The thought did not please him. His father's war was long done, and lost. This was Theon's hour-his
plan, his glory, and in time his crown. Yet if the longships are hosting . . .


It might be only a caution, now that he thought on it. A defensive move, lest the war spill out across the
sea. Old men were cautious by nature. His father was old now, and so too his uncle Victarion, who
commanded the Iron Fleet. His uncle Euron was a different song, to be sure, but the Silence did not seem
to be in port. It's all for the good, Theon told himself. This way, I shall be able to strike all the more
quickly.
As the Myraham made her way landward, Theon paced the deck restlessly, scanning the shore. He had
not thought to find Lord Balon himself at quayside, but surely his father would have sent someone to meet
him. Sylas Sourmouth the steward, Lord Botley, perhaps even Dagmer Cleftjaw. It would be good to
look on Dagmer's hideous old face again. It was not as though they had no word of his arrival. Robb had
sent ravens from Riverrun, and when they'd found no longship at Seagard, Jason Mallister had sent his
own birds to Pyke, supposing that Robb's were lost.
Yet he saw no familiar faces, no honor guard waiting to escort him from Lordsport to Pyke, only
smallfolk going about their small business. Shorehands rolled casks of wine off the Tyroshi trader,
fisherfolk cried the day's catch, children ran and played. A priest in the seawater robes of the Drowned
God was leading a pair of horses along the pebbled shore, while above him a slattern leaned out a
window in the inn, calling out to some passing Ibbenese sailors.
A handful of Lordsport merchants had gathered to meet the ship. They shouted questions as the
Myraham was tying up. "We're out of Oldtown," the captain called down, "bearing apples and oranges,
wines from the Arbor, feathers from the Summer Isles. I have pepper, woven leathers, a bolt of Myrish
lace, mirrors for milady, a pair of Oldtown woodharps sweet as any you ever heard." The gangplank
descended with a creak and a thud. "And I've brought your heir back to you."
The Lordsport men gazed on Theon with blank, bovine eyes, and he realized that they did not know
who he was. It made him angry. He pressed a golden dragon into the captain's palm. "Have your men
bring my things." Without waiting for a reply, he strode down the gangplank. "Innkeeper," he barked, "I
require a horse."
"As you say, m'lord," the man responded, without so much as a bow. He had forgotten how bold the
ironborn could be. "Happens as I have one might do. Where would you be riding, m'lord?"
"Pyke." The fool still did not know him. He should have worn his good doublet, with the kraken
embroidered on the breast.
"You'll want to be off soon, to reach Pyke afore dark," the innkeeper said. "My boy will go with you and
show you the way."
"Your boy will not be needed," a deep voice called, "nor your horse. I shall see my nephew back to his
father's house."
The speaker was the priest he had seen leading the horses along the shoreline. As the man approached,
the smallfolk bent the knee, and Theon heard the innkeeper murmur, "Damphair."
Tall and thin, with fierce black eyes and a beak of a nose, the priest was garbed in mottled robes of
green and grey and blue, the swirling colors of the Drowned God. A waterskin hung under his arm on a
leather strap, and ropes of dried seaweed were braided through his waist-long black hair and untrimmed
beard.
A memory prodded at Theon. in one of his rare curt letters, Lord Balon had written of his youngest


brother going down in a storm, and turning holy when he washed up safe on shore. "Uncle Aeron?" he
said doubtfully.
"Nephew Theon," the priest replied. "Your lord father bid me fetch you. Come."
"In a moment, Uncle." He turned back to the Myraham. "My things," he commanded the captain.
A sailor fetched him down his tall yew bow and quiver of arrows, but it was the captain's daughter who
brought the pack with his good clothing. "Milord." Her eyes were red. When he took the pack, she made
as if to embrace him, there in front of her own father and his priestly uncle and half the island.
Theon turned deftly aside. "You have my thanks."
"Please," she said, "I do love you well, milord."
"I must go." He hurried after his uncle, who was already well down the pier. Theon caught him with a
dozen long strides. "I had not looked for you, Uncle. After ten years, I thought perhaps my lord father
and lady mother might come themselves, or send Dagmer with an honor guard."
"It is not for you to question the commands of the Lord Reaper of Pyke." The priest's manner was chilly,
most unlike the man Theon
remembered. Aeron Greyjoy had been the most amiable of his uncles, feckless and quick to laugh, fond
of songs, ale, and women. "As to Dagmer, the Cleftiaw is gone to Old Wyk at your father's behest, to
roust the Stonehouses and the Drumms."
"To what purpose? Why are the longships hosting?"
"Why have longships ever hosted?" His uncle had left the horses tied up in front of the waterside inn.
When they reached them, he turned to Theon. "Tell me true, nephew. Do you pray to the wolf gods
now?"
Theon seldom prayed at all, but that was not something you confessed to a priest, even your father's
own brother. "Ned Stark prayed to a tree. No, I care nothing for Stark's gods."
"Good. Kneel."
The ground was all stones and mud. "Uncle, I-"
"Kneel. Or are you too proud now, a lordling of the green lands come among us?"
Theon knelt. He had a purpose here, and might need Aeron's help to achieve it. A crown was worth a
little mud and horseshit on his breeches, he supposed.
"Bow your head." Lifting the skin, his uncle pulled the cork and directed a thin stream of seawater down
upon Theon's head. It drenched his hair and ran over his forehead into his eyes. Sheets washed down his
cheeks, and a finger crept under his cloak and doublet and down his back, a cold rivulet along his spine.
The salt made his eyes burn, until it was all he could do not to cry out. He could taste the ocean on his
lips. "Let Theon your servant be born again from the sea, as you were," Aeron Greyjoy intoned. "Bless
him with salt, bless him with stone, bless him with steel. Nephew, do you still know the words?"


"What is dead may never die," Theon said, remembering.
"What is dead may never die," his uncle echoed, "but rises again, harder and stronger. Stand."
Theon stood, blinking back tears from the salt in his eyes. Wordless, his uncle corked the waterskin,
untied his horse, and mounted. Theon did the same. They set off together, leaving the inn and the harbor
behind them, up past the castle of Lord Botley into the stony hills. The priest ventured no further word.
"I have been half my life away from home," Theon ventured at last. "Will I find the islands changed?"
"Men fish the sea, dig in the earth, and die. Women birth children in blood and pain, and die. Night
follows day. The winds and tides remain. The islands are as our god made them."
Gods, he has grown grim, Theon thought. "Will I find my sister and my lady mother at Pyke?"
"You will not. Your mother dwells on Harlaw, with her own sister. It
is less raw there, and her cough troubles her. Your sister has taken Black Wind to Great Wyk, with
messages from your lord father. She will return e'er long, you may be sure."
Theon did not need to be told that Black Wind was Asha's longship. He had not seen his sister in ten
years, but that much he knew of her. Odd that she would call it that, when Robb Stark had a wolf named
Grey Wind. "Stark is grey and Greyjoy's black," he murmured, smiling, "but it seems we're both windy."
The priest had nothing to say to that.
"And what of you, Uncle?" Theon asked. "You were no priest when I was taken from Pyke. I remember
how you would sing the old reaving songs standing on the table with a horn of ale in hand."
"Young I was, and vain," Aeron Greyjoy said, "but the sea washed my follies and my vanities away. That
man drowned, nephew. His lungs filled with seawater, and the fish ate the scales off his eyes. When I
rose again, I saw clearly."
He is as mad as he is sour. Theon had liked what he remembered of the old Aeron Greyjoy. "Uncle,
why has my father called his swords and sails?"
"Doubtless he will tell you at Pyke."
"I would know his plans now."
"From me, you shall not. We are commanded not to speak of this to any man."
"Even to me?" Theon's anger flared. He'd led men in war, hunted with a king, won honor in tourney
melees, ridden with Brynden Blackfish and Greatjon Umber, fought in the Whispering Wood, bedded
more girls than he could name, and yet this uncle was treating him as though he were still a child of ten. "If
my father makes plans for war, I must know of them. I am not 'any man,' I am heir to Pyke and the Iron
Islands."
"As to that," his uncle said, "we shall see."
The words were a slap in the face. "We shall see~ My brothers are both dead. I am my lord father's


only living son."
"Your sister lives."
Asha, he thought, confounded. She was three years older than Theon, yet still . . . "A woman may inherit
only if there is no male heir in the direct line," he insisted loudly. "I will not be cheated of my rights, I warn
you."
His uncle grunted. "You warn a servant of the Drowned God, boy? You have forgotten more than you
know. And you are a great fool if you believe your lord father will ever hand these holy islands over to a
Stark. Now be silent. The ride is long enough without your magpie chatterings."
Theon held his tongue, though not without struggle. So that is the
way of it, he thought. As if ten years in Winterfell could make a Stark. Lord Eddard had raised him
among his own children, but Theon had never been one of them. The whole castle, from Lady Stark to
the lowliest kitchen scullion, knew he was hostage to his father's good behavior, and treated him
accordingly. Even the bastard Jon Snow had been accorded more honor than he had.
Lord Eddard had tried to play the father from time to time, but to Theon he had always remained the
man who'd brought blood and fire to Pyke and taken him from his home. As a boy, he had lived in fear
of Stark's stern face and great dark sword. His wife was, if anything, even more distant and suspicious.
As for their children, the younger ones had been mewling babes for most of his years at Winterfell. Only
Robb and his baseborn half brother Jon Snow had been old enough to be worth his notice. The bastard
was a sullen boy, quick to sense a slight, jealous of Theon's high birth and Robb's regard for him. For
Robb himself, Theon did have a certain affection, as for a younger brother . . . but it would be best not to
mention that. In Pyke, it would seem, the old wars were still being fought. That ought not surprise him.
The Iron Islands lived in the past; the present was too hard and bitter to be borne. Besides, his father and
uncles were old, and the old lords were like that; they took their dusty feuds to the grave, forgetting
nothing and forgiving less.
It had been the same with the Mallisters, his companions on the ride from Riverrun to Seagard. Patrek
Mallister was not too ill a fellow; they shared a taste for wenches, wine, and hawking. But when old Lord
Jason saw his heir growing overly fond of Theon's company, he had taken Patrek aside to remind him
that Seagard had been built to defend the coast against reavers from the Iron islands, the Greyjoys of
Pyke chief among them. Their Booming Tower was named for its immense bronze bell, rung of old to call
the townsfolk and farmhands into the castle when longships were sighted on the western horizon.
"Never mind that the bell has been rung just once in three hundred years," Patrek had told Theon the day
after, as he shared his father's cautions and a jug of green-apple wine.
"When my brother stormed Seagard," Theon said. Lord Jason had slain Rodrik Greyjoy under the walls
of the castle, and thrown the ironmen back into the bay. "If your father supposes I bear him some enmity
for that, it's only because he never knew Rodrik."
They had a laugh over that as they raced ahead to an amorous young miller's wife that Patrek knew.
Would that Patrek were with me now Mallister or no, he was a more amiable riding companion than this
sour old priest that his uncle Aeron had turned into.
The path they rode wound up and up, into bare and stony hills. Soon


they were out of sight of the sea, though the smell of salt still hung sharp in the damp air. They kept a
steady plodding pace, past a shepherd's croft and the abandoned workings of a mine. This new, holy
Aeron Greyjoy was not much for talk. They rode in a gloom of silence. Finally Theon could suffer it no
longer. "Robb Stark is Lord of Winterfell now," he said.
Aeron rode on. "One wolf is much like the other."
"Robb has broken fealty with the Iron Throne and crowned himself King in the North. There's war."
"The maester's ravens fly over salt as soon as rock. This news is old and cold."
"It means a new day, Uncle."
"Every morning brings a new day, much like the old."
"In Riverrun, they would tell you different. They say the red comet is a herald of a new age. A messenger
from the gods."
"A sign it is," the priest agreed, "but from our god, not theirs. A burning brand it is, such as our people
carried of old. It is the flame the Drowned God brought from the sea, and it proclaims a rising tide. It is
time to hoist our sails and go forth into the world with fire and sword, as he did."
Theon smiled. "I could not agree more."
"A man agrees with god as a raindrop with the storm."
This raindrop will one day be a king, old man. Theon had suffered quite enough of his uncle's gloom. He
put his spurs into his horse and trotted on ahead, smiling.
It was nigh on sunset when they reached the walls of Pyke, a crescent of dark stone that ran from cliff to
cliff, with the gatehouse in the center and three square towers to either side. Theon could still make out
the scars left by the stones of Robert Baratheon's catapults. A new south tower had risen from the ruins
of the old, its stone a paler shade of grey, and as yet unmarred by patches of lichen. That was where
Robert had made his breach, swarming in over the rubble and corpses with his warharnmer in hand and
Ned Stark at his side. Theon had watched from the safety of the Sea Tower, and sometimes he still saw
the torches in his dreams, and heard the dull thunder of the collapse.
The gates stood open to him, the rusted iron portcullis drawn up. The guards atop the battlements
watched with strangers' eyes as Theon Greyjoy came home at last.
Beyond the curtain wall were half a hundred acres of headland hard against the sky and the sea. The
stables were here, and the kennels, and a scatter of other outbuildings. Sheep and swine huddled in their
pens while the castle dogs ran free. To the south were the cliffs, and the wide stone bridge to the Great
Keep. Theon could hear the crashing of waves as he swung down from his saddle. A stableman came to
take his horse.
A pair of gaunt children and some thralls stared at him with dull eyes, but there was no sign of his lord
father, nor anyone else he recalled from boyhood. A bleak and bitter homecoming, he thought.
The priest had not dismounted. "Will you not stay the night and share our meat and mead, Uncle?"


"Bring you, I was told. You are brought. Now I return to our god's business." Aeron Greyjoy turned his
horse and rode slowly out beneath the muddy spikes of the portcullis.
A bentback old crone in a shapeless grey dress approached him warily. "M'lord, I am sent to show you
to chambers."
"By whose bidding?"
"Your lord father, m'lord."
Theon pulled off his gloves. "So you do know who I am. Why is my father not here to greet me?"
"He awaits you in the Sea Tower, m'lord. When you are rested from your trip."
And I thought Ned Stark cold. "And who are you?"
"Helya, who keeps this castle for your lord father."
"Sylas was steward here. They called him Sourmouth." Even now, Theon could recall the winey stench
of the old man's breath.
"Dead these five years, m'lord."
"And what of Maester Qalen, where is he?"
"He sleeps in the sea. Wendamyr keeps the ravens now."
It is as if I were a stranger here, Theon thought. Nothing has changed, and yet everything has changed.
"Show me to my chambers, woman," he commanded. Bowing stiffly, she led him across the headland to
the bridge. That at least was as he remembered; the ancient stones slick with spray and spotted by lichen,
the sea foaming under their feet like some great wild beast, the salt wind clutching at their clothes.
Whenever he'd imagined his homecoming, he had always pictured himself returning to the snug
bedchamber in the Sea Tower, where he'd slept as a child. Instead the old woman led him to the Bloody
Keep. The halls here were larger and better furnished, if no less cold nor damp. Theon was given a suite
of chilly rooms with ceilings so high that they were lost in gloom. He might have been more impressed if
he had not known that these were the very chambers that had given the Bloody Keep its name. A
thousand years before, the sons of the River King had been slaughtered here, hacked to bits in their beds
so that pieces of their bodies might be sent back to their father on the mainland.
But Greyjoys were not murdered in Pyke except once in a great while by their brothers, and his brothers
were both dead. It was not fear of ghosts that made him glance about with distaste. The wall hangings
were green with mildew, the mattress musty-smelling and sagging, the
rushes old and brittle. Years had come and gone since these chambers had last been opened. The damp
went bone deep. "I'll have a basin of hot water and a fire in this hearth," he told the crone. "See that they
light braziers in the other rooms to drive out some of the chill. And gods be good, get someone in here at
once to change these rushes."
"Yes, m'lord. As you command." She fled.


After some time, they brought the hot water he had asked for. It was only tepid, and soon cold, and
seawater in the bargain, but it served to wash the dust of the long ride from his face and hair and hands.
While two thralls lit his braziers, Theon stripped off his travel-stained clothing and dressed to meet his
father. He chose boots of supple black leather, soft lambswool breeches of silvery-grey, a black velvet
doublet with the golden kraken of the Greyjoys embroidered on the breast. Around his throat he fastened
a slender gold chain, around his waist a belt of bleached white leather. He hung a dirk at one hip and a
longsword at the other, in scabbards striped black-and-gold. Drawing the dirk, he tested its edge with his
thumb, pulled a whetstone from his belt pouch, and gave it a few licks. He prided himself on keeping his
weapons sharp. "When I return, I shall expect a warm room and clean rushes," he warned the thralls as
he drew on a pair of black gloves, the silk decorated with a delicate scrollwork tracery in golden thread.
Theon returned to the Great Keep through a covered stone walkway, the echoes of his footsteps
mingling with the ceaseless rumble of the sea below. To get to the Sea Tower on its crooked pillar, he
had to cross three further bridges, each narrower than the one before. The last was made of rope and
wood, and the wet salt wind made it sway underfoot like a living thing. Theon's heart was in his mouth by
the time he was halfway across. A long way below, the waves threw up tall plumes of spray as they
crashed against the rock. As a boy, he used to run across this bridge, even in the black of night. Boys
believe nothing can hurt them, his doubt whispered. Grown men know better.
The door was grey wood studded with iron, and Theon found it barred from the inside. He hammered
on it with a fist, and cursed when a splinter snagged the fabric of his glove. The wood was damp and
moldy, the iron studs rusted.
After a moment the door was opened from within by a guard in a black iron breastplate and pothelm.
"You are the son?"
"Out of my way, or you'll learn who I am." The man stood aside. Theon climbed the twisting steps to the
solar. He found his father seated beside a brazier, beneath a robe of musty sealskins that covered him
foot to chin. At the sound of boots on stone, the Lord of the Iron Islands lifted his eyes to behold his last
living son. He was smaller than Theon remembered
him. And so gaunt. Balon Greyjoy had always been thin, but now he looked as though the gods
had put him in a cauldron and boiled every spare ounce of flesh from his bones, until nothing remained
but hair and skin. Bone thin and bone hard he was, with a face that might have been chipped from flint.
His eyes were flinty too, black and sharp, but the years and the salt winds had turned his hair the grey of
a winter sea, flecked with whitecaps. Unbound, it hung past the small of the back.
"Nine years, is it?" Lord Balon said at last.
"Ten," Theon answered, pulling off his torn gloves.
"A boy they took," his father said. "What are you now?"
"A man," Theon answered. "Your blood and your heir."
Lord Balon grunted. "We shall see."
"You shall," Theon promised.
"Ten years, you say. Stark had you as long as I. And now you come as his envoy."


"Not his," Theon said. "Lord Eddard is dead, beheaded by the Lannister queen."
"They are both dead, Stark and that Robert who broke my walls with his stones. I vowed I'd live to see
them both in their graves, and I have." He grimaced. "Yet the cold and the damp still make my joints
ache, as when they were alive. So what does it serve?"
"It serves." Theon moved closer. "I bring a letter-"
"Did Ned Stark dress you like that?" his father interrupted, squinting up from beneath his robe. "Was it
his pleasure to garb you in velvets and silks and make you his own sweet daughter?"
Theon felt the blood rising to his face. "I am no man's daughter. If you mislike my garb, I will change it."
"You will." Throwing off the furs, Lord Balon pushed himself to his feet. He was not so tall as Theon
remembered. "That bauble around your neck-was it bought with gold or iron?"
Theon touched the gold chain. He had forgotten. It has been so long . . . In the Old Way, women might
decorate themselves with ornaments bought with coin, but a warrior wore only the jewelry he took off
the corpses of enemies slain by his own hand. Paying the iron price, it was called.
"You blush red as a maid, Theon. A question was asked. Is it the gold price you paid, or the iron?"
"The gold," Theon admitted.
His father slid his fingers under the necklace and gave it a yank so hard it was like to take Theon's head
off, had the chain not snapped first. "My daughter has taken an axe for a lover," Lord Balon said. "I will
not have my son bedeck himself like a whore." He dropped the broken chain
onto the brazier, where it slid down among the coals. "It is as I feared. The green lands have made you
soft, and the Starks have made you theirs. "
"You're wrong. Ned Stark was my gaoler, but my blood is still salt and iron."
Lord Balon turned away to warm his bony hands over the brazier. "Yet the Stark pup sends you to me
like a well-trained raven, clutching his little message."
"There is nothing small about the letter I bear," Theon said, "and the offer he makes is one I suggested to
him."
"This wolf king heeds your counsel, does he?" The notion seemed to amuse Lord Balon.
"He heeds me, yes. I've hunted with him, trained with him, shared meat and mead with him, warred at his
side. I have earned his trust. He looks on me as an older brother, he-"
"No. " His father jabbed a finger at his face. "Not here, not in Pyke, not in my hearing, you will not name
him brother, this son of the man who put your true brothers to the sword. Or have you forgotten Rodrik
and Maron, who were your own blood?"
"I forget nothing." Ned Stark had killed neither of his brothers, in truth. Rodrik had been slain by Lord
Jason Mallister at Seagard, Maron crushed in the collapse of the old south tower . . . but Stark would


have done for them just as quick had the tide of battle chanced to sweep them together. "I remember my
brothers very well," Theon insisted. Chiefly he remembered Rodrik's drunken cuffs and Maron's cruel
japes and endless lies. "I remember when my father was a king too." He took out Robb's letter and thrust
it forward. "Here. Read it . . . Your Grace."
Lord Balon broke the seal and unfolded the parchment. His black eyes flicked back and forth. "So the
boy would give me a crown again," he said, "and all I need do is destroy his enemies." His thin lips
twisted in a smile.
"By now Robb is at the Golden Tooth," Theon said. "Once it falls, he'll be through the hills in a day. Lord
Tywin's host is at Harrenhal, cut off from the west. The Kingslayer is a captive at Riverrun. Only Ser
Stafford Lannister and the raw green levies he's been gathering remain to oppose Robb in the west. Ser
Stafford will put himself between Robb's army and Lannisport, which means the city will be undefended
when we descend on it by sea. If the gods are with us, even Casterly Rock itself may fall before the
Lannisters so much as realize that we are upon them."
Lord Balon grunted. "Casterly Rock has never fallen."
"Until now." Theon smiled. And how sweet that will be.
His father did not return the smile. "So this is why Robb Stark sends
you back to me, after so long? So you might win my consent to th-is-pl-anof his? "
"It is my plan, not Robb's," Theon said proudly. Mine, as the victory will be mine, and in time the crown.
"I will lead the attack myself, if it please you. As my reward I would ask that you grant me Casterly Rock
for my own seat, once we have taken it from the Lannisters." With the Rock, he could hold Lannisport
and the golden lands of the west. It would mean wealth and power such as House Greyjoy had never
known.
"You reward yourself handsomely for a notion and a few lines of scribbling." His father read the letter
again. "The pup says nothing about a reward. Only that you speak for him, and I am to listen, and give
him my sails and swords, and in return he will give me a crown." His flinty eyes lifted to meet his son's.
"He will give me a crown," he repeated, his voice growing sharp.
"A poor choice of words, what is meant is-"
"What is meant is what is said. The boy will give me a crown. And what is given can be taken away."
Lord Balon tossed the letter onto the brazier, atop the necklace. The parchment curled, blackened, and
took flame.
Theon was aghast. "Have you gone mad?"
His father laid a stinging backhand across his cheek. "Mind your tongue. You are not in Winterfell now,
and I am not Robb the Boy, that you should speak to me so. I am the Greyjoy, Lord Reaper of Pyke,
King of Salt and Rock, Son of the Sea Wind, and no man gives me a crown. I pay the iron price. I will
take my crown, as Urron Redhand did five thousand years ago."
Theon edged backward, away from the sudden fury in his father's tone. "Take it, then," he spat, his
cheek still tingling. "Call yourself King of the Iron islands, no one will care . . . until the wars are over, and
the victor looks about and spies the old fool perched off his shore with an iron crown on his head."


Lord Balon laughed. "Well, at the least you are no craven. No more than I'm a fool. Do you think I
gather my ships to watch them rock at anchor? I mean to carve out a kingdom with fire and sword . . .
but not from the west, and not at the bidding of King Robb the Boy. Casterly Rock is too strong, and
Lord Tywin too cunning by half. Aye, we might take Lannisport, but we should never keep it. No. I
hunger for a different plum . . . not so juicy sweet, to be sure, yet it hangs there ripe and undefended."
Where? Theon might have asked, but by then he knew.
CHAPTER 12
DAENERYS
The Dothraki named the comet shierak qiya, the Bleeding Star. The old men muttered that it omened ill,
but Daenerys Targaryen had seen it first on the night she had burned Khal Drogo, the night her dragons
had awakened. It is the herald of my coming, she told herself as she gazed up into the night sky with
wonder in her heart. The gods have sent it to show me the way.
Yet when she put the thought into words, her handmaid Doreah quailed. "That way lies the red lands,
Khaleesi. A grim place and terrible, the riders say."
"The way the comet points is the way we must go," Dany insisted . . . though in truth, it was the only way
open to her.
She dare not turn north onto the vast ocean of grass they called the Dothraki sea. The first khalasar they
met would swallow up her ragged band, slaying the warriors and slaving the rest. The lands of the Lamb
Men south of the river were likewise closed to them. They were too few to defend themselves even
against that unwarlike folk, and the Lhazareen had small reason to love them. She might have struck
downriver for the ports at Meereen and Yunkai and Astapor, but Rakharo warned her that Pono's
khalasar had ridden that way, driving thousands of captives before them to sell in the flesh marts that
festered like open sores on the shores of Slaver's Bay. "Why should I fear Pono?" Dany objected. "He
was Drogo's ko, and always spoke me gently."
"Ko Pono spoke you gently," Ser Jorah Mormont said. "Khal Pono will
kill you. He was the first to abandon Drogo. Ten thousand warriors went with him. You have a
hundred."
No, Dany thought. I have four. The rest are women, old sick men' and boys whose hair has never been
braided. "I have the dragons," she pointed out.
"Hatchlings," Ser Jorah said. "One swipe from an arakh would put an end to them, though Porto is more
like to seize them for himself. Your dragon eggs were more precious than rubies. A living dragon is
beyond price. in all the world, there are only three. Every man who sees them will want them, my queen."
"They are mine," she said fiercely. They had been born from her faith and her need, given life by the
deaths of her husband and unborn son and the maegi Mirri Maz Duur. Dany had walked into the flames


as they came forth, and they had drunk milk from her swollen breasts. "No man will take them from me
while I live."
"You will not live long should you meet Khal Pono. Nor Khal jhaqo, nor any of the others. You must go
where they do not."
Dany had named him the first of her Queensguard . . . and when Mormont's gruff counsel and the omens
agreed, her course was clear. She called her people together and mounted her silver mare. Her hair had
burned away in Drogo's pyre, so her handmaids garbed her in the skin of the hrakkar Drogo had slain,
the white lion of the Dothraki sea. Its fearsome head made a hood to cover her naked scalp, its pelt a
cloak that flowed across her shoulders and down her back. The cream-colored dragon sunk sharp black
claws into the lion's mane and coiled its tail around her arm, while Ser Jorah took his accustomed place
by her side.
"We follow the comet," Dany told her khalasar. Once it was said, no word was raised against it. They
had been Drogo's people, but they were hers now. The Unburnt, they called her, and Mother of
Dragons. Her word was their law.
They rode by night, and by day took refuge from the sun beneath their tents. Soon enough Dany learned
the truth of Doreah's words. This was no kindly country. They left a trail of dead and dying horses behind
them as they went, for Pono, jhaqo, and the others had seized the best of Drogo's herds, leaving to Dany
the old and the scrawny, the sickly and the lame, the broken animals and the ill-tempered. It was the
same with the people. They are not strong, she told herself, so I must be their strength. I must show no
fear, no weakness, no doubt. However frightened my heart, when they look upon my face they must see
only Drogo's queen. She felt older than her fourteen years. If ever she had truly been a girl, that time was
done.
Three days into the march, the first man died. A toothless oldster with cloudy blue eyes, he fell
exhausted from his saddle and could not rise
again. An hour later he was done. Blood flies swarmed about his corpse and carried his ill luck to the
living. "His time was past," her handmaid Irri declared. "No man should live longer than his teeth." The
others agreed. Dany bid them kill the weakest of their dying horses, so the dead man might go mounted
into the night lands.
Two nights later, it was an infant girl who perished. Her mother's anguished wailing lasted all day, but
there was nothing to be done. The child had been too young to ride, poor thing. Not for her the endless
black grasses of the night lands; she must be born again.
There was little forage in the red waste, and less water. It was a sere and desolate land of low hills and
barren windswept plains. The rivers they crossed were dry as dead men's bones. Their mounts subsisted
on the tough brown devilgrass that grew in clumps at the base of rocks and dead trees. Dany sent
outriders ranging ahead of the column, but they found neither wells nor springs, only bitter pools, shallow
and stagnant, shrinking in the hot sun. The deeper they rode into the waste, the smaller the pools became,
while the distance between them grew. If there were gods in this trackless wilderness of stone and sand
and red clay, they were hard dry gods, deaf to prayers for rain.
Wine gave out first, and soon thereafter the clotted mare's milk the horselords loved better than mead.
Then their stores of flatbread and dried meat were exhausted as well. Their hunters found no game, and
only the flesh of their dead horses filled their bellies. Death followed death. Weak children, wrinkled old
women, the sick and the stupid and the heedless, the cruel land claimed them all. Doreah grew gaunt and


hollow-eyed, and her soft golden hair turned brittle as straw.
Dany hungered and thirsted with the rest of them. The milk in her breasts dried up, her nipples cracked
and bled, and the flesh fell away from her day by day until she was lean and hard as a stick, yet it was her
dragons she feared for. Her father had been slain before she was born, and her splendid brother Rhaegar
as well. Her mother had died bringing her into the world while the storm screamed outside. Gentle Ser
Willem Darry, who must have loved her after a fashion, had been taken by a wasting sickness when she
was very young. Her brother Viserys, Khal Drogo who was her sun-and-stars, even her unborn son, the
gods had claimed them all. They will not have my dragons, Dany vowed. They will not.
The dragons were no larger than the scrawny cats she had once seen skulking along the walls of
Magister Illyrio's estate in Pentos . . . until they unfolded their wings. Their span was three times their
length, each wing a delicate fan of translucent skin, gorgeously colored, stretched taut between long thin
bones. When you looked hard, you could see that most of their body was neck, tail, and wing. Such little
things, she
thought as she fed them by hand. or rather, tried to feed them, or t e dragons would not eat. They would
hiss and spit at each bloody morsel of horsemeat, steam rising from their nostrils, yet they would not take
the food . . . until Dany recalled something Viserys had told her when they were children.
Only dragons and men eat cooked meat, he had said.
When she had her handmaids char the horsemeat black, the dragons ripped at it eagerly, their heads
striking like snakes. So long as the meat was seared, they gulped down several times their own weight
every day, and at last began to grow larger and stronger. Dany marveled at the smoothness of their
scales, and the heat that poured off them, so palpable that on cold nights their whole bodies seemed to
steam.
Each evenfall as the khalasai set out, she would choose a dragon to ride upon her shoulder. Irri and
Jhiqui carried the others in a cage of woven wood slung between their mounts, and rode close behind
her, so Dany was never out of their sight. It was the only way to keep them quiescent.
"Aegon's dragons were named for the gods of Old Valyria," she told her bloodriders one morning after a
long night's journey. "Visenya's dragon was Vhagar, Rhaenys had Meraxes, and Aegon rode Balerion,
the Black Dread. It was said that Vhagar's breath was so hot that it could melt a knight's armor and cook
the man inside, that Meraxes swallowed horses whole, and Balerion . . . his fire was as black as his
scales, his wings so vast that whole towns were swallowed up in their shadow when he passed
overhead."
The Dothraki looked at her hatchlings uneasily. The largest of her three was shiny black, his scales
slashed with streaks of vivid scarlet to match his wings and horns. "Khaleesi," Aggo murmured, "there sits
Balerion, come again."
"It may be as you say, blood of my blood," Dany replied gravely, "but he shall have a new name for this
new life. I would name them all for those the gods have taken. The green one shall be Rhaegal, for my
valiant brother who died on the green banks of the Trident. The cream-and-gold I call Viserion. Viserys
was cruel and weak and frightened, yet he was my brother still. His dragon will do what he could not."
"And the black beast?" asked Ser Jorah Mormont.
"The black," she said, "is Drogon."


Yet even as her dragons prospered, her khalasar withered and died. Around them the land turned ever
more desolate. Even devilgrass grew scant; horses dropped in their tracks, leaving so few that some of
her people must trudge along on foot. Doreah took a fever and grew worse with every league they
crossed. Her lips and hands broke with blood blisters, her hair came out in clumps, and one evenfall she
lacked the
strength to mount her horse. Jhogo said they must leave her or bind her to her saddle, but Dany
remembered a night on the Dothraki sea, when the Lysene girl had taught her secrets so that Drogo might
love her more. She gave Doreah water from her own skin, cooled her brow with a damp cloth, and held
her hand until she died, shivering. Only then would she permit the khalasar to press on.
They saw no sign of other travelers. The Dothraki began to mutter fearfully that the comet had led them
to some hell. Dany went to Ser Jorah one morning as they made camp amidst a jumble of black
windscoured stones. "Are we lost?" she asked him. "Does this waste have no end to it?"
"It has an end," he answered wearily. "I have seen the maps the traders draw, my queen. Few caravans
come this way, that is so, yet there are great kingdoms to the east, and cities full of wonders. Yi Ti,
Qarth, Asshai by the Shadow . . ."
"Will we live to see them?"
"I will not lie to you. The way is harder than I dared think." The knight's face was grey and exhausted.
The wound he had taken to his hip the night he fought Khal Drogo's bloodriders had never fully healed;
she could see how he grimaced when he mounted his horse, and he seemed to slump in his saddle as they
rode. "Perhaps we are doomed if we press on . . . but I know for a certainty that we are doomed if we
turn back."
Dany kissed him lightly on the cheek. It heartened her to see him smile. I must be strong for him as well,
she thought grimly. A knight he may be, but I am the blood of the dragon.
The next pool they found was scalding hot and stinking of brimstone, but their skins were almost empty.
The Dothraki cooled the water in jars and pots and drank it tepid. The taste was no less foul, but water
was water, and all of them thirsted. Dany looked at the horizon with despair. They had lost a third of their
number, and still the waste stretched before them, bleak and red and endless. The comet mocks my
hopes, she thought, lifting her eyes to where it scored the sky. Have I crossed half the world and seen the
birth of dragons only to die with them in this hard hot desert? She would not believe it.
The next day, dawn broke as they were crossing a cracked and fissured plain of hard red earth. Dany
was about to command them to make camp when her outriders came racing back at a gallop. "A city,
Khaleesi," they cried. "A city pale as the moon and lovely as a maid. An hour's ride, no more."
"Show me," she said.
When the city appeared before her, its walls and towers shimmering white behind a veil of heat, it
looked so beautiful that Dany was certain
it must be a mirage. "Do you know what place this might be? Ser Jorah."
The exile knight gave a weary shake of the head. "No, my queen. I have never traveled this far east."


The distant white walls promised rest and safety, a chance to heal and grow strong, and Dany wanted
nothing so much as to rush toward them. Instead she turned to her bloodriders. "Blood of my blood, go
ahead of us and learn the name of this city, and what manner of welcome we should expect."
"Ai, Khaleesi, " said Aggo.
Her riders were not long in returning. Rakharo swung down from his saddle. From his medallion belt
hung the great curving arakh that Dany had bestowed on him when she named him bloodrider. "This city
is dead, Khaleesi. Nameless and godless we found it, the gates broken, only wind and flies moving
through the streets."
Jhiqui shuddered. "When the gods are gone, the evil ghosts feast by night. Such places are best shunned.
It is known."
"It is known," Irri agreed.
"Not to me." Dany put her heels into her horse and showed them the way, trotting beneath the shattered
arch of an ancient gate and down a silent street. Ser Jorah and her bloodriders followed, and then, more
slowly, the rest of the Dothraki.
How long the city had been deserted she could not know, but the white walls, so beautiful from afar,
were cracked and crumbling when seen up close. Inside was a maze of narrow crooked alleys. The
buildings pressed close, their facades blank, chalky, windowless. Everything was white, as if the people
who lived here had known nothing of color. They rode past heaps of sun-washed rubble where houses
had fallen in, and elsewhere saw the faded scars of fire. At a place where six alleys came together, Dany
passed an empty marble plinth. Dothraki had visited this place before, it would seem. Perhaps even now
the missing statue stood among the other stolen gods in Vaes Dothrak. She might have ridden past it a
hundred times, never knowing. On her shoulder, Viserion hissed.
They made camp before the remnants of a gutted palace, on a windswept plaza where devilgrass grew
between the paving stones. Dany sent out men to search the ruins. Some went reluctantly, yet they went .
. . and one scarred old man returned a brief time later, hopping and grinning, his hands overflowing with
figs. They were small, withered things, yet her people grabbed for them greedily, jostling and pushing at
each other, stuffing the fruit into their cheeks and chewing blissfully.
Other searchers returned with tales of other fruit trees, hidden behind
closed doors in secret gardens. Aggo showed her a courtyard overgrown with twisting vines and tiny
green grapes, and Jhogo discovered a well where the water was pure and cold. Yet they found bones
too, the skulls of the unburied dead, bleached and broken. "Ghosts," Irri muttered. "Terrible ghosts. We
must not stay here, Khaleesi, this is their place."
"I fear no ghosts. Dragons are more powerful than ghosts." And figs are more important. "Go with Jhiqui
and find me some clean sand for a bath, and trouble me no more with silly talk."
In the coolness of her tent, Dany blackened horsemeat over a brazier and reflected on her choices.
There was food and water here to sustain them, and enough grass for the horses to regain their strength.
How pleasant it would be to wake every day in the same place, to linger among shady gardens, eat figs,
and drink cool water, as much as she might desire.
When Irri and Jhiqui returned with pots of white sand, Dany stripped and let them scrub her clean.


"Your hair is coming back, Khaleesi," Jhiqui said as she scraped sand off her back. Dany ran a hand over
the top of her head, feeling the new growth. Dothraki men wore their hair in long oiled braids, and cut
them only when defeated. Perhaps I should do the same, she thought, to remind them that Drogo's
strength lives within me now Khal Drogo had died with his hair uncut, a boast few men could make.
Across the tent, Rhaegal unfolded green wings to flap and flutter a half foot before thumping to the
carpet. When he landed, his tail lashed back and forth in fury, and he raised his head and screamed. If I
had wings, I would want to fly too, Dany thought. The Targaryens of old had ridden upon dragonback
when they went to war. She tried to imagine what it would feel like, to straddle a dragon's neck and soar
high into the air. It would be like standing on a mountaintop, only better. The whole world would be
spread out below If I flew high enough, I could even see the Seven Kingdoms, and reach up and touch
the comet.
Irri broke her reverie to tell her that Ser Jorah Mormont was outside, awaiting her pleasure. "Send him
in," Dany commanded, sand-scrubbed skin tingling. She wrapped herself in the lionskin. The hrakkar had
been much bigger than Dany, so the pelt covered everything that wanted covering.
"I've brought you a peach," Ser Jorah said, kneeling. It was so small she could almost hide it in her palm,
and overripe too, but when she took the first bite, the flesh was so sweet she almost cried. She ate it
slowly, savoring every mouthful, while Ser Jorah told her of the tree it had been plucked from, in a
garden near the western wall.
"Fruit and water and shade," Dany said, her cheeks sticky with peach juice. "The gods were good to
bring us to this place."
"We should rest here until we are stronger," the knight urged. "The red lands are not kind to the weak."
"My handmaids say there are ghosts here."
"There are ghosts everywhere," Ser Jorah said softly. "We carry them with us wherever we go."
Yes, she thought. Viserys, Khal Drogo, my son Rhaego, they are with me always. "Tell me the name of
your ghost, Jorah. You know all of mine."
His face grew very still. "Her name was Lynesse."
"Your wife?"
"My second wife."
It pains him to speak of her, Dany saw, but she wanted to know the truth. "Is that all you would say of
her?" The lion pelt slid off one shoulder and she tugged it back into place. "Was she beautiful?"
"Very beautiful." Ser Jorah lifted his eyes from her shoulder to her face. "The first time I beheld her, I
thought she was a goddess come to earth, the Maid herself made flesh. Her birth was far above my own.
She was the youngest daughter of Lord Leyton Hightower of Oldtown. The White Bull who commanded
your father's Kingsguard was her greatuncle. The Hightowers are an ancient family, very rich and very
proud."
"And loyal," Dany said. "I remember, Viserys said the Hightowers were among those who stayed true to
my father."


"That's so," he admitted.
"Did your fathers make the match?"
"No," he said. "Our marriage . . . that makes a long tale and a dull one, Your Grace. I would not trouble
you with it."
"I have nowhere to go," she said. "Please."
"As my queen commands." Ser Jorah frowned. "My home . . . you must understand that to understand
the rest. Bear island is beautiful, but remote. Imagine old gnarled oaks and tall pines, flowering
thornbushes, grey stones bearded with moss, little creeks running icy down steep hillsides. The hall of the
Mormonts is built of huge logs and surrounded by an earthen palisade. Aside from a few crofters, my
people live along the coasts and fish the seas. The island lies far to the north, and our winters are more
terrible than you can imagine, Khaleesi.
"Still, the island suited me well enough, and I never lacked for women. I had my share of fishwives and
crofter's daughters, before and after I was wed. I married young, to a bride of my father's choosing, a
Glover of Deepwood Motte. Ten years we were wed, or near enough as makes no matter. She was a
plain-faced woman, but not unkind. I suppose I came to love her after a fashion, though our relations
were dutiful rather than passionate. Three times she miscarried while trying to give me an heir. The last
time she never recovered. She died not long after."
Dany put her hand on his and gave his fingers a squeeze. "I am sorry for you, truly."
Ser Jorah nodded. "By then my father had taken the black, so I was Lord of Bear Island in my own
right. I had no lack of marriage offers, but before I could reach a decision Lord Balon Greyjoy rose in
rebellion against the Usurper, and Ned Stark called his banners to help his friend Robert. The final battle
was on Pyke. When Robert's stonethrowers opened a breach in King Balon's wall, a priest from Myr
was the first man through, but I was not far behind. For that I won my knighthood.
"To celebrate his victory, Robert ordained that a tourney should be held outside Lannisport. It was there
I saw Lynesse, a maid half my age. She had come up from Oldtown with her father to see her brothers
joust. I could not take my eyes off her. In a fit of madness, I begged her favor to wear in the tourney,
never dreaming she would grant my request, yet she did.
"I fight as well as any man, Khaleesi, but I have never been a tourney knight. Yet with Lynesse's favor
knotted round my arm, I was a different man. I won joust after joust. Lord Jason Mallister fell before me,
and Bronze Yohn Royce. Ser Ryman Frey, his brother Ser Hosteen, Lord Whent, Strongboar, even Ser
Boros Blount of the Kingsguard, I unhorsed them all. In the last match, I broke nine lances against Jaime
Lannister to no result, and King Robert gave me the champion's laurel. I crowned Lynesse queen of love
and beauty, and that very night went to her father and asked for her hand. I was drunk, as much on glory
as on wine. By rights I should have gotten a contemptuous refusal, but Lord Leyton accepted my offer.
We were married there in Lannisport, and for a fortnight I was the happiest man in the wide world."
"Only a fortnight?" asked Dany. Even I was given more happiness than that, with Drogo who was my
sun-and-stars.
"A fortnight was how long it took us to sail from Lannisport back to Bear island. My home was a great
disappointment to Lynesse. It was too cold, too damp, too far away, my castle no more than a wooden


longhall. We had no masques, no mummer shows, no balls or fairs. Seasons might pass without a singer
ever coming to play for us, and there's not a goldsmith on the island. Even meals became a trial. My cook
knew little beyond his roasts and stews, and Lynesse soon lost her taste for fish and venison.
"I lived for her smiles, so I sent all the way to Oldtown for a new cook, and brought a harper from
Lannisport. Goldsmiths, jewelers, dressmakers, whatever she wanted I found for her, but it was never
enough. Bear Island is rich in bears and trees, and poor in aught else. I built a fine ship for her and we
sailed to Lannisport and Oldtown for festivals and fairs,
and once even to Braavos, where I borrowed heavily from the money-lenders. It was as a tourney
champion that I had won her hand and heart, so I entered other tourneys for her sake, but the magic was
gone. I never distinguished myself again, and each defeat meant the loss of another charger and another
suit of jousting armor, which must needs be ransomed or replaced. The cost could not be borne. Finally I
insisted we return home, but there matters soon grew even worse than before. I could no longer pay the
cook and the harper, and Lynesse grew wild when I spoke of pawning her jewels.
"The rest . . . I did things it shames me to speak of. For gold. So Lynesse might keep her jewels, her
harper, and her cook. In the end it cost me all. When I heard that Eddard Stark was coming to Bear
Island, I was so lost to honor that rather than stay and face his judgment, I took her with me into exile.
Nothing mattered but our love, I told myself. We fled to Lys, where I sold my ship for gold to keep us."
His voice was thick with grief, and Dany was reluctant to press him any further, yet she had to know
how it ended. "Did she die there?" she asked him gently.
"Only to me," he said. "In half a year my gold was gone, and I was obliged to take service as a
sellsword. While I was fighting Braavosi on the Rhoyne, Lynesse moved into the manse of a merchant
prince named Tregar Ormollen. They say she is his chief concubine now, and even his wife goes in fear of
her."
Dany was horrified. "Do you hate her?"
"Almost as much as I love her," Ser Jorah answered. "Pray excuse me, my queen. I find I am very tired."
She gave him leave to go, but as he was lifting the flap of her tent, she could not stop herself calling after
him with one last question. "What did she look like, your Lady Lynesse?"
Ser Jorah smiled sadly. "Why, she looked a bit like you, Daenerys." He bowed low. "Sleep well, my
queen."
Dany shivered, and pulled the lionskin tight about her. She looked like me. It explained much that she
had not truly understood. He wants me, she realized. He loves me as he loved her, not as a knight loves
his queen but as a man loves a woman. She tried to imagine herself in Ser Jorah's arms, kissing him,
pleasuring him, letting him enter her. It was no good. When she closed her eyes, his face kept changing
into Drogo's.
Khal Drogo had been her sun-and-stars, her first, and perhaps he must be her last. The maegi Mirri Maz
Duur had sworn she should never bear a living child, and what man would want a barren wife? And what
man could hope to rival Drogo, who had died with his hair uncut and rode now through the night lands,
the stars his khalasar?
She had heard the longing in Ser Jorah's voice when he spoke of his Bear Island. He can never have me,


but one day I can give him back his home and honor. That much I can do for him.
No ghosts troubled her sleep that night. She dreamed of Drogo and the first ride they had taken together
on the night they were wed. In the dream it was not horses they rode, but dragons.
The next morn, she summoned her bloodriders. "Blood of my blood," she told the three of them, "I have
need of you. Each of you is to choose three horses, the hardiest and healthiest that remain to us. Load as
much water and food as your mounts can bear, and ride forth for me. Aggo shall strike southwest,
Rakharo due south. Jhogo, you are to follow shierak qiya on southeast."
"What shall we seek, Khaleesi?" asked Jhogo.
"Whatever there is," Dany answered. "Seek for other cities, living and dead. Seek for caravans and
people. Seek for rivers and lakes and the great salt sea. Find how far this waste extends before us, and
what lies on the other side. When I leave this place, I do not mean to strike out blind again. I will know
where I am bound, and how best to get there."
And so they went, the bells in their hair ringing softly, while Dany settled down with her small band of
survivors in the place they named Vaes Tolorro, the city of bones. Day followed night followed day.
Women harvested fruit from the gardens of the dead. Men groomed their mounts and mended saddles,
stirrups, and shoes. Children wandered the twisty alleys and found old bronze coins and bits of purple
glass and stone flagons with handles carved like snakes. One woman was stung by a red scorpion, but
hers was the only death. The horses began to put on some flesh. Dany tended Ser Jorah's wound herself,
and it began to heal.
Rakharo was the first to return. Due south the red waste stretched on and on, he reported, until it ended
on a bleak shore beside the poison water. Between here and there lay only swirling sand, wind-scoured
rocks, and plants bristly with sharp thorns. He had passed the bones of a dragon, he swore, so immense
that he had ridden his horse through its great black jaws. Other than that, he had seen nothing.
Dany gave him charge of a dozen of her strongest men, and set them to pulling up the plaza to get to the
earth beneath. If devilgrass could grow between the paving stones, other grasses would grow when the
stones were gone. They had wells enough, no lack of water. Given seed, they could make the plaza
bloom.
Aggo was back next. The southwest was barren and burnt, he swore. He had found the ruins of two
more cities, smaller than Vaes Tolorro but otherwise the same. One was warded by a ring of skulls
mounted on rusted iron spears, so he dared not enter, but he had explored the second for as long as he
could. He showed Dany an iron bracelet he had found,
set with a uncut fire opal the size of her thumb. There were scrolls as well, but they were dry and
crumbling and Aggo had left them where they lay.
Dany thanked him and told him to see to the repair of the gates. If enemies had crossed the waste to
destroy these cities in ancient days, they might well come again. "If so, we must be ready," she declared.
Jhogo, was gone so long that Dany feared him lost, but finally when they had all but ceased to look for
him, he came riding up from the southeast. One of the guards that Aggo had posted saw him first and
gave a shout, and Dany rushed to the walls to see for herself. It was true. Jhogo came, yet not alone.
Behind him rode three queerly garbed strangers atop ugly humped creatures that dwarfed any horse.


They drew rein before the city gates, and looked up to see Dany on the wall above them. "Blood of my
blood," Jhogo called, "I have been to the great city Qarth, and returned with three who would look on
you with their own eyes."
Dany stared down at the strangers. "Here I stand. Look, if that is your pleasure . . . but first tell me your
names."
The pale man with the blue lips replied in guttural Dothraki, "I am Pyat Pree, the great warlock."
The bald man with the jewels in his nose answered in the Valyrian of the Free Cities, "I am Xaro Xhoan
Daxos of the Thirteen, a merchant prince of Qarth."
The woman in the lacquered wooden mask said in the Common Tongue of the Seven Kingdoms, "I am
Quaithe of the Shadow. We come seeking dragons."
"Seek no more," Daenerys Targaryen told them. "You have found them."
CHAPTER 13
JON
Whitetree, the village was named on Sam's old maps. Jon did not think it much of a village. Four
tumbledown oneroom houses of unmortared stone surrounded an empty sheepfold and a well. The
houses were roofed with sod, the windows shuttered with ragged pieces of hide. And above them
loomed the pale limbs and dark red leaves of a monstrous great weirwood.
It was the biggest tree Jon Snow had ever seen, the trunk near eight feet wide, the branches spreading
so far that the entire village was shaded beneath their canopy. The size did not disturb him so much as the
face . . . the mouth especially, no simple carved slash, but a jagged hollow large enough to swallow a
sheep.
Those are not sheep bones, though. Nor is that a sheep's skull in the ashes.
"An old tree." Mormont sat his horse, frowning. "Old, " his raven agreed from his shoulder. "Old, old,
old. "
"And powerful." Jon could feel the power.
Thoren Smallwood dismounted beside the trunk, dark in his plate and mail. "Look at that face. Small
wonder men feared them, when they first came to Westeros. I'd like to take an axe to the bloody thing
myself."
Jon said, "My lord father believed no man could tell a lie in front of a heart tree. The old gods know
when men are lying."
"My father believed the same," said the Old Bear. "Let me have a look at that skull."


Jon dismounted. Slung across his back in a black leather shoulder sheath was Longclaw, the
hand-and-a-half bastard blade the Old Bear had given him for saving his life. A bastard sword for a
bastard, the men joked. The hilt had been fashioned new for him, adorned with a wolf'shead pommel in
pale stone, but the blade itself was Valyrian steel, old and light and deadly sharp.
He knelt and reached a gloved hand down into the maw. The inside of the hollow was red with dried
sap and blackened by fire. Beneath the skull he saw another, smaller, the jaw broken off. It was
half-buried in ash and bits of bone.
When he brought the skull to Mormont, the Old Bear lifted it in both hands and stared into the empty
sockets. "The wildlings burn their dead. We've always known that. Now I wished I'd asked them why,
when there were still a few around to ask."
Jon Snow remembered the wight rising, its eyes shining blue in the pale dead face. He knew why, he
was certain.
"Would that bones could talk," the Old Bear grumbled. "This fellow could tell us much. How he died.
Who burned him, and why. Where the wildlings have gone." He sighed. "The children of the forest could
speak to the dead, it's said. But I can't." He tossed the skull back into the mouth of the tree, where it
landed with a puff of fine ash. "Go through all these houses. Giant, get to the top of this tree, have a look.
I'll have the hounds brought up too. Perchance this time the trail will be fresher." His tone did not suggest
that he held out much hope of the last.
Two men went through each house, to make certain nothing was missed. Jon was paired with dour
Eddison Tollett, a squire grey of hair and thin as a pike, whom the other brothers called Dolorous Edd.
"Bad enough when the dead come walking," he said to Jon as they crossed the village, "now the Old
Bear wants them talking as well? No good will come of that, I'll warrant. And who's to say the bones
wouldn't lie? Why should death make a man truthful, or even clever? The dead are likely dull fellows, full
of tedious complaints-the ground's too cold, my gravestone should be larger, why does he get more
worms than I do . . ."
Jon had to stoop to pass through the low door. Within he found a packed dirt floor. There were no
furnishings, no sign that people had lived here but for some ashes beneath the smoke hole in the roof.
"What a dismal place to live," he said.
"I was born in a house much like this," declared Dolorous Edd. "Those were my enchanted years. Later
I fell on hard times." A nest of dry straw bedding filled one corner of the room. Edd looked at it with
longing. "I'd give all the gold in Casterly Rock to sleep in a bed again."
"You call that a bed?"
"If it's softer than the ground and has a roof over it, I call it a bed." Dolorous Edd sniffed the air. "I smell
dung."
The smell was very faint. "Old dung," said Jon. The house felt as though it had been empty for some
time. Kneeling, he searched through the straw with his hands to see if anything had been concealed
beneath, then made a round of the walls. It did not take very long. "There's nothing here."
Nothing was what he had expected; Whitetree was the fourth village they had passed, and it had been
the same in all of them. The people were gone, vanished with their scant possessions and whatever
animals they may have had. None of the villages showed any signs of having been attacked. They were


simply . . . empty. "What do you think happened to them all?" Jon asked.
"Something worse than we can imagine," suggested Dolorous Edd. "Well, I might be able to imagine it,
but I'd sooner not. Bad enough to know you're going to come to some awful end without thinking about
it aforetime."
Two of the hounds were sniffing around the door as they reemerged. Other dogs ranged through the
village. Chett was cursing them loudly, his voice thick with the anger he never seemed to put aside. The
light filtering through the red leaves of the weirwood made the boils on his face look even more inflamed
than usual. When he saw Jon his eyes narrowed; there was no love lost between them.
The other houses had yielded no wisdom. "Gone," cried Mormont's raven, flapping up into the
weirwood to perch above them. "Gone, gone, gone. "
"There were wildlings at Whitetree only a year ago." Thoren Smallwood looked more a lord than
Mormont did, clad in Ser Jaremy Rykker's gleaming black mail and embossed breastplate. His heavy
cloak was richly trimmed with sable, and clasped with the crossed hammers of the Rykkers, wrought in
silver. Ser Jaremy's cloak, once . . . but the wight had claimed Ser Jaremy, and the Night's Watch
wasted nothing.
"A year ago Robert was king, and the realm was at peace," declared Jarman Buckwell, the square stolid
man who commanded the scouts. "Much can change in a year's time."
"One thing hasn't changed," Ser Mallador Locke insisted. "Fewer wildlings means fewer worries. I won't
mourn, whatever's become of them. Raiders and murderers, the lot of them."
Jon heard a rustling from the red leaves above. Two branches parted, and he glimpsed a little man
moving from limb to limb as easily as a squirrel. Bedwyck stood no more than five feet tall, but the grey
streaks in his hair showed his age. The other rangers called him Giant. He sat in a fork of the tree over
their heads and said, "There's water to the north. A
lake, might be. A few flint hills rising to the west, not very high. Nothing else to see, my lords."
"We might camp here tonight," Smallwood suggested.
The Old Bear glanced up, searching for a glimpse of sky through the pale limbs and red leaves of the
weirwood. "No," he declared. "Giant, how much daylight remains to us?"
"Three hours, my lord."
"We'll press on north," Mormont decided. "If we reach this lake, we can make camp by the shore,
perchance catch a few fish. Jon, fetch me paper, it's past time I wrote Maester Aemon."
Jon found parchment, quill, and ink in his saddlebag and brought them to the Lord Commander. At
Whitetree, Mormont scrawled. The fourth village. All empty. The wildlings are gone. "Find Tarly and see
that he gets this on its way," he said as he handed Jon the message. When he whistled, his raven came
flapping down to land on his horse's head. "Corn," the raven suggested, bobbing. The horse whickered.
Jon mounted his garron, wheeled him about, and trotted off. Beyond the shade of the great weirwood
the men of the Night's Watch stood beneath lesser trees, tending their horses, chewing strips of salt beef,
pissing, scratching, and talking. When the command was given to move out again, the talk died, and they


climbed back into their saddles. Jarman Buckwell's scouts rode out first, with the vanguard under Thoren
Smallwood heading the column proper. Then came the Old Bear with the main force, Ser Mallador
Locke with the baggage train and packhorses, and finally Ser Ottyn Wythers and the rear guard. Two
hundred men all told, with half again as many mounts.
By day they followed game trails and streambeds, the "ranger's roads" that led them ever deeper into the
wilderness of leaf and root. At night they camped beneath a starry sky and gazed up at the comet. The
black brothers had left Castle Black in good spirits, joking and trading tales, but of late the brooding
silence of the wood seemed to have sombered them all. jests had grown fewer and tempers shorter. No
one would admit to being afraid-they were men of the Night's Watch, after all-but Jon could feel the
unease. Four empty villages, no wildlings anywhere, even the game seemingly fled. The haunted forest
had never seemed more haunted, even veteran rangers agreed.
As he rode, Jon peeled off his glove to air his burned fingers. Ugly things. He remembered suddenly how
he used to muss Arya's hair. His little stick of a sister. He wondered how she was faring. It made him a
little sad to think that he might never muss her hair again. He began to flex his hand, opening and closing
the fingers. If he let his sword hand stiffen and grow clumsy, it well might be the end of him, he knew. A
man needed his sword beyond the Wall.
Jon found Samwell Tarly with the other stewards, watering his horses. He had three to tend: his own
mount, and two packhorses, each bearing a large wire-and-wicker cage full of ravens. The birds flapped
their wings at Jon's approach and screamed at him through the bars. A few shrieks sounded suspiciously
like words. "Have you been teaching them to talk?" he asked Sam.
"A few words. Three of them can say snow"
"One bird croaking my name was bad enough," said Jon, "and snow's nothing a black brother wants to
hear about." Snow often meant death in the north.
"Was there anything in Whitetree?"
"Bones, ashes, and empty houses." Jon handed Sam the roll of parchment. "The Old Bear wants word
sent back to Aemon."
Sam took a bird from one of the cages, stroked its feathers, attached the message, and said, "Fly home
now, brave one. Home." The raven quorked something unintelligible back at him, and Sam tossed it into
the air. Flapping, it beat its way skyward through the trees. "I wish he could carry me with him."
"Still?"
"Well," said Sam, "yes, but . . . I'm not as frightened as I was, truly. The first night, every time I heard
someone getting up to make water, I thought it was wildlings creeping in to slit my throat. I was afraid
that if I closed my eyes, I might never open them again, only . . . well . . . dawn came after all." He
managed a wan smile. "I may be craven, but I'm not stupid. I'm sore and my back aches from riding and
from sleeping on the ground, but I'm hardly scared at all. Look." He held out a hand for Jon to see how
steady it was. "I've been working on my maps."
The world is strange, Jon thought. Two hundred brave men had left the Wall, and the only one who was
not growing more fearful was Sam, the self-confessed coward. "We'll make a ranger of you yet," he
joked. "Next thing, you'll want to be an outrider like Grenn. Shall I speak to the Old Bear?"


"Don't you dare!" Sam pulled up the hood of his enormous black cloak and clambered awkwardly back
onto his horse. It was a plow horse, big and slow and clumsy, but better able to bear his weight than the
little garrons the rangers rode. "I had hoped we might stay the night in the village," he said wistfully. "It
would be nice to sleep under a roof again."
"Too few roofs for all of us." Jon mounted again, gave Sam a parting smile, and rode off. The column
was well under way, so he swung wide around the village to avoid the worst of the congestion. He had
seen enough of Whitetree.
Ghost emerged from the undergrowth so suddenly that the garron shied and reared. The white wolf
hunted well away from the line of
march, but he was not having much better fortune than the foragers Smallwood sent out after game. The
woods were as empty as the villages, Dywen had told him one night around the fire. "We're a large
party," Jon had said. "The game's probably been frightened away by all the noise we make on the
march."
"Frightened away by something, no doubt," Dywen said.
Once the horse had settled, Ghost loped along easily beside him. Jon caught up to Mormont as he was
wending his way around a hawthorn thicket. "Is the bird away?" the Old Bear asked.
"Yes, my lord. Sam is teaching them to talk."
The Old Bear snorted. "He'll regret that. Damned things make a lot of noise, but they never say a thing
worth hearing."
They rode in silence, until Jon said, "If my uncle found all these villages empty as well-"
--he would have made it his purpose to learn why," Lord Mormont finished for him, "and it may well be
someone or something did not want that known. Well, we'll be three hundred when Qhorin joins us.
Whatever enemy waits out here will not find us so easy to deal with. We will find them, Jon, I promise
you."
Or they will find us, thought Jon.
CHAPTER 14
ARYA
The river was a blue-green ribbon shining in the morning sun. Reeds grew thick in the shallows along the
banks, and Arya saw a water snake skimming across the surface, ripples spreading out behind it as it
went. Overhead a hawk flew in lazy circles.
It seemed a peaceful place . . . until Koss spotted the dead man. "There, in the reeds." He pointed, and
Arya saw it. The body of a soldier, shapeless and swollen. His sodden green cloak had hung up on a
rotted log, and a school of tiny silver fishes were nibbling at his face. "I told you there was bodies,"


Lommy announced. "I could taste them in that water."
When Yoren saw the corpse, he spat. "Dobber, see if he's got anything worth the taking. Mail, knife, a
bit o' coin, what have you." He spurred his gelding and rode out into the river, but the horse struggled in
the soft mud and beyond the reeds the water deepened. Yoren rode back angry, his horse covered in
brown slime up to the knees. "We won't be crossing here. Koss, you'll come with me upriver, look for a
ford. Woth, Gerren, you go downstream. The rest o' you wait here. Put a guard out."
Dobber found a leather purse in the dead man's belt. Inside were four coppers and a little hank of blond
hair tied up with a red ribbon. Lommy and Tarber stripped naked and went wading, and Lommy
scooped up handfuls of slimy mud and threw them at Hot Pie, shouting, "Mud Pie! Mud Pie!" In the back
of their wagon, Rorge cursed and threatened and told them to unchain him while Yoren was gone, but no
one paid him
any mind. Kurz caught a fish with his bare hands. Arya saw how he did it, standing over a shallow pool,
calm as still water, his hand darting out quick as a snake when the fish swam near. It didn't look as hard
as catching cats. Fish didn't have claws.
It was midday when the others returned. Woth reported a wooden bridge half a mile downstream, but
someone had burned it up. Yoren peeled a sourleaf off the bale. "Might be we could swim the horses
over, maybe the donkeys, but there's no way we'll get those wagons across. And there's smoke to the
north and west, more fires, could be this side o' the river's the place we want to be." He picked up a long
stick and drew a circle in the mud, a line trailing down from it. "That's Gods Eye, with the river flowing
south. We're here." He poked a hole beside the line of the river, under the circle. "We can't go round
west of the lake, like I thought. East takes us back to the kingsroad." He moved the stick up to where the
line and circle met. "Near as I recall, there's a town here. The holdfast's stone, and there's a lordling got
his seat there too, just a towerhouse, but he'll have a guard, might be a knight or two. We follow the river
north, should be there before dark. They'll have boats, so I mean to sell all we got and hire us one." He
drew the stick up through the circle of the lake, from bottom to top. "Gods be good, we'll find a wind
and sail across the Gods Eye to Harrentown." He thrust the point down at the top of the circle. "We can
buy new mounts there, or else take shelter at Harrenhal. That's Lady Whent's seat, and she's always
been a friend o' the Watch."
Hot Pie's eyes got wide. "There's ghosts in Harrenhal
Yoren spat. "There's for your ghosts." He tossed the stick down in the mud. "Mount up."
Arya was remembering the stories Old Nan used to tell of Harrenhal. Evil King Harren had walled
himself up inside, so Aegon unleashed his dragons and turned the castle into a pyre. Nan said that fiery
spirits still haunted the blackened towers. Sometimes men went to sleep safe in their beds and were
found dead in the morning, all burnt up. Arya didn't really believe that, and anyhow it had all happened a
long time ago. Hot Pie was being silly; it wouldn't be ghosts at Harrenhal, it would be knights. Arya could
reveal herself to Lady Whent, and the knights would escort her home and keep her safe. That was what
knights did; they kept you safe, especially women. Maybe Lady Whent would even help the crying girl.
The river track was no kingsroad, yet it was not half bad for what it was, and for once the wagons rolled
along smartly. They saw the first house an hour shy of evenfall, a snug little thatch-roofed cottage
surrounded by fields of wheat. Yoren rode out ahead, hallooing, but got no answer. "Dead, might be. Or
hiding. Dobber, Rey, with me." The three
men went into the cottage. "Pots is gone, no sign o' any coin laid by," Yoren muttered when they


returned. "No animals. Run, most like. Might be we met 'em on the kingsroad. " At least the house and
field had not been burned, and there were no corpses about. Tarber found a garden out back, and they
pulled some onions and radishes and filled a sack with cabbages before they went on their way.
A little farther up the road, they glimpsed a forester's cabin surrounded by old trees and neatly stacked
logs ready for the splitting, and later a ramshackle stilt-house leaning over the river on poles ten feet tall,
both deserted. They passed more fields, wheat and corn and barley ripening in the sun, but here there
were no men sitting in trees, nor walking the rows with scythes. Finally the town came into view; a cluster
of white houses spread out around the walls of the holdfast, a big sept with a shingled wooden roof, the
lord's towerhouse sitting on a small rise to the west . . . and no sign of any people, anywhere.
Yoren sat on his horse, frowning through his tangle of beard. "Don't like it," he said, "but there it is. We'll
go have us a look. A careful look. See maybe there's some folk hiding. Might be they left a boat behind,
or some weapons we can use."
The black brother left ten to guard the wagons and the whimpery little girl, and split the rest of them into
four groups of five to search the town. "Keep your eyes and ears open," he warned them, before he rode
off to the towerhouse to see if there was any sign of the lordling or his guards.
Arya found herself with Gendry, Hot Pie, and Lommy. Squat, kettlebellied Woth had pulled an oar on a
galley once, which made him the next best thing they had to a sailor, so Yoren told him to take them
down to the lakefront and see if they could find a boat. As they rode between the silent white houses,
gooseprickles crawled up Arya's arms. This empty town frightened her almost as much as the burnt
holdfast where they'd found the crying girl and the one-armed woman. Why would people run off and
leave their homes and everything? What could scare them so much?
The sun was low to the west, and the houses cast long dark shadows. A sudden clap of sound made
Arya reach for Needle, but it was only a shutter banging in the wind. After the open river shore, the
closeness of the town unnerved her.
When she glimpsed the lake ahead between houses and trees, Arya put her knees into her horse,
galloping past Woth and Gendry. She burst out onto the grassy sward beside the pebbled shore. The
setting sun made the tranquil surface of the water shimmer like a sheet of beaten copper. It was the
biggest lake she had ever seen, with no hint of a far shore. She saw a rambling inn to her left, built out
over the water on heavy wooden pilings. To her right, a long pier jutted into the lake, and there were
other
docks farther east, wooden fingers reaching out from the town. But the only boat in view was an
upside-down rowboat abandoned on the rocks beneath the inn, its bottom thoroughly rotted out.
"They're gone," Arya said, dejected. What would they do now?
"There's an inn," Lommy said, when the others rode up. "Do you think they left any food? Or ale?"
"Let's go see," Hot Pie suggested.
"Never you mind about no inn," snapped Woth. "Yoren said we're to find a boat."
"They took the boats." Somehow Arya knew it was true; they could search the whole town, and they'd
find no more than the upside-down rowboat. Despondent, she climbed off her horse and knelt by the
lake. The water lapped softly around her legs. A few lantern bugs were coming out, their little lights
blinking on and off. The green water was warm as tears, but there was no salt in it. It tasted of summer


and mud and growing things. Arya plunged her face down into it to wash off the dust and dirt and sweat
of the day. When she leaned back the trickles ran down the back of her neck and under her collar. They
felt good. She wished she could take off her clothes and swim, gliding through the warm water like an
skinny pink otter. Maybe she could swim all the way to Winterfell.
Woth was shouting at her to help search, so she did, peering into boathouses and sheds while her horse
grazed along the shore. They found some sails, some nails, buckets of tar gone hard, and a mother cat
with a litter of new-born kittens. But no boats.
The town was as dark as any forest when Yoren and the others reappeared. "Tower's empty," he said.
"Lord's gone off to fight maybe, or to get his smallfolk to safety, no telling. Not a horse or pig left in town,
but we'll eat. Saw a goose running loose, and some chickens, and there's good fish in the Gods Eye."
"The boats are gone," Arya reported.
"We could patch the bottom of that rowboat," said Koss.
"Might do for four o' us," Yoren said.
"There's nails," Lommy pointed out. "And there's trees all around. We could build us all boats."
Yoren spat. "You know anything 'bout boat-building, dyer's boy?" Lommy looked blank.
"A raft," suggested Gendry. "Anyone can build a raft, and long poles for pushing."
Yoren looked thoughtful. "Lake's too deep to pole across, but if we stayed to the shallows near shore . .
. itd mean leaving the wagons. Might be that's best. I'll sleep on it."
"Can we stay at the inn?" Lommy asked.
"We'll stay in the holdfast, with the gates barred," the old man said. "I like the feel o' stone walls about
me when I sleep."
Arya could not keep quiet. "We shouldn't stay here," she blurted. "The people didn't. They all ran off,
even their lord."
"Arry's scared," Lommy announced, braying laughter.
"I'm not," she snapped back, "but they were."
"Smart boy," said Yoren. "Thing is, the folks who lived here were at war, like it or no. We're not. Night's
Watch takes no part, so no man's our enemy."
And no man's our friend, she thought, but this time she held her tongue. Lommy and the rest were
looking at her, and she did not want to seem craven in front of them.
The holdfast gates were studded with iron nails. Within, they found a pair of iron bars the size of
saplings, with post holes in the ground and metal brackets on the gate. When they slotted the bars
through the brackets, they made a huge X brace. It was no Red Keep, Yoren announced when they'd
explored the holdfast top to bottom, but it was better than most, and should do for a night well enough.
The walls were rough unmortared stone ten feet high, with a wooden catwalk inside the battlements.


There was a postern gate to the north, and Gerren discovered a trap under the straw in the old wooden
barn, leading to a narrow, winding tunnel. He followed it a long way under the earth and came out by the
lake. Yoren had them roll a wagon on top of the trap, to make certain no one came in that way. He
divided them into three watches, and sent Tarber, Kurz, and Cutjack off to the abandoned towerhouse
to keep an eye out from on high. Kurz had a hunting horn to sound if danger threatened.
They drove their wagons and animals inside and barred the gates behind them. The barn was a
ramshackle thing, large enough to hold half the animals in the town. The haven, where the townfolk would
shelter in times of trouble, was even larger, low and long and built of stone, with a thatched roof. Koss
went out the postern gate and brought the goose back, and two chickens as well, and Yoren allowed a
cookfire. There was a big kitchen inside the holdfast, though all the pots and kettles had been taken.
Gendry, Dobber, and Arya drew cook duty. Dobber told Arya to pluck the fowl while Gendry split
wood. "Why can't I split the wood?" she asked, but no one listened. Sullenly, she set to plucking a
chicken while Yoren sat on the end of the bench sharpening the edge of his dirk with a whetstone.
When the food was ready, Arya ate a chicken leg and a bit of onion. No one talked much, not even
Lommy. Gendry went off by himself afterward, polishing his helm with a look on his face like he wasn't
even
there. The crying girl whimpered and wept, but when Hot Pie offered her a bit of goose she gobbled it
down and looked for more.
Arya drew second watch, so she found a straw pallet in the haven. Sleep did not come easy, so she
borrowed Yoren's stone and set to honing Needle. Syrio Forel had said that a dull blade was like a lame
horse. Hot Pie squatted on the pallet beside her, watching her work. "Where'd you get a good sword like
that?" he asked. When he saw the look she gave him, he raised his hands defensively. "I never said you
stole it, I just wanted to know where you got it, is all."
"My brother gave it to me," she muttered.
"I never knew you had no brother."
Arya paused to scratch under her shirt. There were fleas in the straw, though she couldn't see why a few
more would bother her. "I have lots of brothers."
"You do? Are they bigger than you, or littler?"
I shouldn't be talking like this. Yoren said I should keep my mouth shut. "Bigger," she lied. "They have
swords too, big longswords, and they showed me how to kill people who bother me."
"I was talking, not bothering." Hot Pie went off and let her alone and Arya curled up on her pallet. She
could hear the crying girl from the far side of the haven. I wish she'd just be quiet. Why does she have to
cry all the time?
She must have slept, though she never remembered closing her eyes. She dreamed a wolf was howling,
and the sound was so terrible that it woke her at once. Arya sat up on her pallet with her heart thumping.
"Hot Pie, wake up." She scrambled to her feet. "Woth, Gendry, didn't you hear?" She pulled on a boot.
All around her, men and boys stirred and crawled from their pallets. "What's wrong?" Hot Pie asked.
"Hear what?" Gendry wanted to know. "Arry had a bad dream," someone else said.


"No, I heard it," she insisted. "A wolf."
"Arry has wolves in his head," sneered Lommy. "Let them howl," Gerren said, "they're out there, we're in
here." Woth agreed. "Never saw no wolf could storm a holdfast." Hot Pie was saying, "I never heard
nothing."
"It was a wolf," she shouted at them as she yanked on her second boot. "Something's wrong, someone's
coming, get up!"
Before they could hoot her down again, the sound came shuddering through the night-only it was no wolf
this time, it was Kurz blowing his hunting horn, sounding danger. In a heartbeat, all of them were pulling
on clothes and snatching for whatever weapons they owned. Arya ran for the gate as the horn sounded
again. As she dashed past the barn, Biter
threw himself furiously against his chains, and Jaqen Hghar called out from the back of their wagon.
"Boy! Sweet boy! Is it war, red war? Boy, free us. A man can fight. Boy!" She ignored him and plunged
on. By then she could hear horses and shouts beyond the wall.
She scrambled up onto the catwalk. The parapets were a bit too high and Arya a bit too short; she had
to wedge her toes into the holes between the stones to see over. For a moment she thought the town was
full of lantern bugs. Then she realized they were men with torches, galloping between the houses. She
saw a roof go up, flames licking at the belly of the night with hot orange tongues as the thatch caught.
Another followed, and then another, and soon there were fires blazing everywhere.
Gendry climbed up beside her, wearing his helm. "How many?"
Arya tried to count, but they were riding too fast, torches spinning through the air as they flung them. "A
hundred," she said. "Two hundred, I don't know." Over the roar of the flames, she could hear shouts.
"They'll come for us soon."
"There," Gendry said, pointing.
A column of riders moved between the burning buildings toward the holdfast. Firelight glittered off metal
helms and spattered their mail and plate with orange and yellow highlights. One carried a banner on a tall
lance. She thought it was red, but it was hard to tell in the night, with the fires roaring all around.
Everything seemed red or black or orange.
The fire leapt from one house to another. Arya saw a tree consumed, the flames creeping across its
branches until it stood against the night in robes of living orange. Everyone was awake now, manning the
catwalks or struggling with the frightened animals below. She could hear Yoren shouting commands.
Something bumped against her leg, and she glanced down to discover the crying girl clutching her. "Get
away!" She wrenched her leg free. "What are you doing up here? Run and hide someplace, you stupid."
She shoved the girl away.
The riders reined up before the gates. "You in the holdfast!" shouted a knight in a tall helm with a spiked
crest. "Open, in the name of the king!"
"Aye, and which king is that?" old Reysen yelled back down, before Woth cuffed him into silence.
Yoren climbed the battlement beside the gate, his faded black cloak tied to a wooden staff. "You men
hold down here!" he shouted. "The townfolk's gone."


"And who are you, old man? One of Lord Beric's cravens?" called the knight in the spiked helm. "if that
fat fool Thoros is in there, ask him how he likes these fires."
"Got no such man here," Yoren shouted back. "Only some lads for the
Watch. Got no part o' your war." He hoisted up the staff, so they could all see the color of his cloak.
"Have a look. That's black, for the Night's Watch."
"Or black for House Dondarrion, " called the man who bore the enemy banner. Arya could see its
colors more clearly now in the light of the burning town: a golden lion on red. "Lord Beric's sigil is a
purple lightning bolt on a black field."
Suddenly Arya remembered the morning she had thrown the orange in Sansa's face and gotten juice all
over her stupid ivory silk gown. There had been some southron lordling at the tourney, her sister's stupid
friend Jeyne was in love with him. He had a lightning bolt on his shield and her father had sent him out to
behead the Hound's brother. It seemed a thousand years ago now, something that had happened to a
different person in a different life . . . to Arya Stark the Hand's daughter, not Arry the orphan boy. How
would Arry know lords and such?
"Are you blind, man?" Yoren waved his staff back and forth, making the cloak ripple. "You see a bloody
lightning bolt?"
"By night all banners look black," the knight in the spiked helm observed. "Open, or we'll know you for
outlaws in league with the king's enemies."
Yoren spat. "Who's got your command?"
"I do." The reflections of burning houses glimmered dully on the armor of his warhorse as the others
parted to let him pass. He was a stout man with a manticore on his shield, and ornate scrollwork crawling
across his steel breastplate. Through the open visor of his helm, a face pale and piggy peered up. "Ser
Amory Lorch, bannerman to Lord Tywin Larmister of Casterly Rock, the Hand of the King. The true
king, Joffrey." He had a high, thin voice. "In his name, I command you to open these gates."
All around them, the town burned. The night air was full of smoke, and the drifting red embers
outnumbered the stars. Yoren scowled. "Don't see the need. Do what you want to the town, it's naught
to me, but leave us be. We're no foes to you."
Look with your eyes, Arya wanted to shout at the men below. "Can't they see we're no lords or
knights?" she whispered.
"I don't think they care, Arry," Gendry whispered back.
And she looked at Ser Amory's face, the way Syrio had taught her to look, and she saw that he was
right.
"If you are no traitors, open your gates," Ser Amory called. "We'll make certain you're telling it true and
be on our way."
Yoren was chewing sourleaf. "Told you, no one here but us. You got my word on that."


The knight in the spiked helm laughed. "The crow gives us his word.
"You lost, old man?" mocked one of the spearmen. "The Wall's a long way north o' here."
"I command you once more, in King Joffrey's name, to prove the loyalty you profess and open these
gates," said Ser Amory.
For a long moment Yoren considered, chewing. Then he spat. "Don't think I will."
"So be it. You defy the king's command, and so proclaim yourselves rebels, black cloaks or no."
"Got me young boys in here," Yoren shouted down.
"Young boys and old men die the same." Ser Amory raised a lanquid fist, and a spear came hurtling from
the fire-bright shadows behind. Yoren must have been the target, but it was Woth beside him who was
hit. The spearhead went in his throat and exploded out the back of his neck, dark and wet. Woth
grabbed at the shaft, and fell boneless from the walk.
"Storm the walls and kill them all," Ser Amory said in a bored voice. More spears flew. Arya yanked
down Hot Pie by the back of his tunic. From outside came the rattle of armor, the scrape of swords on
scabbards, the banging of spears on shields, mingled with curses and the hoofbeats of racing horses. A
torch sailed spinning above their heads, trailing fingers of fire as it thumped down in the dirt of the yard.
"Blades!" Yoren shouted. "Spread apart, defend the wall wherever they hit. Koss, Urreg, hold the
postern. Lommy, pull that spear out of Woth and get up where he was."
Hot Pie dropped his shortsword when he tried to unsheath it. Arya shoved the blade back into his hand.
"I don't know how to swordfight," he said, white-eyed.
"It's easy," Arya said, but the lie died in her throat as a hand grasped the top of the parapet. She saw it
by the light of the burning town, so clear that it was as if time had stopped. The fingers were blunt,
callused, wiry black hairs grew between the knuckles, there was dirt under the nail of the thumb. Fear
cuts deeper than swords, she remembered as the top of a pothelm loomed up behind the hand.
She slashed down hard, and Needle's castle-forged steel bit into the grasping fingers between the
knuckles. "Winterfell!" she screamed. Blood spurted, fingers flew, and the helmed face vanished as
suddenly as it had appeared. "Behind!" Hot Pie yelled. Arya whirled. The second man was bearded and
helmetless, his dirk between his teeth to leave both hands free for climbing. As he swung his leg over the
parapet, she drove her point at his eyes. Needle never touched him; he reeled backward and fell. I hope
he falls on his face and cuts off his tongue. "Watch them, not me!" she screamed at Hot Pie. The next
time someone tried to climb
their part of the wall, the boy hacked at his hands with his swordshort until the man dropped away.
Ser Amory had no ladders, but the holdfast walls were rough-cut and unmortared, easy to climb, and
there seemed to be no end to the foes. For each one Arya cut or stabbed or shoved back, another was
coming over the wall. The knight in the spiked helm reached the rampart, but Yoren tangled his black
banner around his spike, and forced the point of his dirk through his armor while the man was fighting the
cloth. Every time Arya looked up, more torches were flying, trailing long tongues of flame that lingered
behind her eyes. She saw a gold lion on a red banner and thought of Joffrey, wishing he was here so she
could drive Needle through his sneery face. When four men assaulted the gate with axes, Koss shot them


down with arrows, one by one. Dobber wrestled a man off the walk, and Lommy smashed his head with
a rock before he could rise, and hooted until he saw the knife in Dobber's belly and realized he wouldn't
be getting up either. Arya jumped over a dead boy no older than Jon, lying with his arm cut off. She
didn't think she'd done it, but she wasn't sure. She heard Qyle beg for mercy before a knight with a wasp
on his shield smashed his face in with a spiked mace. Everything smelled of blood and smoke and iron
and piss, but after a time it seemed like that was only one smell. She never saw how the skinny man got
over the wall, but when he did she fell on him with Gendry and Hot Pie. Gendry's sword shattered on the
man's helm, tearing it off his head. Underneath he was bald and scared-looking, with missing teeth and a
speckly grey beard, but even as she was feeling sorry for him she was killing him, shouting, "Winterfefl!
Winterfell!" while Hot Pie screamed "Hot Pie!" beside her as he hacked at the man's scrawny neck.
When the skinny man was dead, Gendry stole his sword and leapt down into the yard to fight some
more. Arya looked past him, and saw steel shadows running through the holdfast, firelight shining off mail
and blades, and she knew that they'd gotten over the wall somewhere, or broken through at the postern.
She jumped down beside Gendry, landing the way Syrio had taught her. The night rang to the clash of
steel and the cries of the wounded and dying. For a moment Arya stood uncertain, not knowing which
way to go. Death was all around her.
And then Yoren was there, shaking her, screaming in her face. "Boy!" he yelled, the way he always
yelled it. "Get out, it's done, we've lost. Herd up all you can, you and him and the others, the boys, you
get them out. Now!"
"How?" Arya said.
"That trap," he screamed. "Under the barn."
Quick as that he was gone, off to fight, sword in hand. Arya grabbed
Gendry by the arm. "He said go," she shouted, "the barn, the way out." Through the slits of his helm, the
Bull's eyes shone with reflected fire. He nodded. They called Hot Pie down from the wall and found
Lommy Greenhands where he lay bleeding from a spear thrust through his calf. They found Gerren too,
but he was hurt too bad to move. As they were running toward the barn, Arya spied the crying girl sitting
in the middle of the chaos, surrounded by smoke and slaughter. She grabbed her by the hand and pulled
her to her feet as the others raced ahead. The girl wouldn't walk, even when slapped. Arya dragged her
with her right hand while she held Needle in the left. Ahead, the night was a sullen red. The bam's on fire,
she thought. Flames were licking up its sides from where a torch had fallen on straw, and she could hear
the screaming of the animals trapped within. Hot Pie stepped out of the barn. "Arry, come on! Lommy's
gone, leave her if she won't come!"
Stubbornly, Arya dragged all the harder, pulling the crying girl along. Hot Pie scuttled back inside,
abandoning them . . . but Gendry came back, the fire shining so bright on his polished helm that the horns
seemed to glow orange. He ran to them, and hoisted the crying girl up over his shoulder. "Run!"
Rushing through the barn doors was like running into a furnace. The air was swirling with smoke, the
back wall a sheet of fire ground to roof. Their horses and donkeys were kicking and rearing and
screaming. The poor animals, Arya thought. Then she saw the wagon, and the three men manacled to its
bed. Biter was flinging himself against the chains, blood running down his arms from where the irons
clasped his wrists. Rorge screamed curses, kicking at the wood. "Boy!" called Jaqen H'ghar. "Sweet
boy!"
The open trap was only a few feet ahead, but the fire was spreading fast, consuming the old wood and


dry straw faster than she would have believed. Arya remembered the Hound's horrible burned face.
"Tunnel's narrow," Gendry shouted. "How do we get her through?"
"Pull her," Arya said. "Push her."
"Good boys, kind boys," called Jaqen H'ghar, coughing.
"Get these fucking chains off!" Rorge screamed.
Gendry ignored them. "You go first, then her, then me. Hurry, it's a long way."
"When you split the firewood," Arya remembered, "where did you leave the axe?"
"Out by the haven." He spared a glance for the chained men. "I'd save the donkeys first. There's no
time."
"You take her!" she yelled. "You get her out! You do it!" The fire beat at her back with hot red wings as
she fled the burning barn. It felt blessedly cool outside, but men were dying all around her. She saw Koss
throw down his blade to yield, and she saw them kill him where he stood. Smoke was everywhere.
There was no sign of Yoren, but the axe was where Gendry had left it, by the woodpile outside the
haven. As she wrenched it free, a mailed hand grabbed her arm. Spinning, Arya drove the head of the
axe hard between his legs. She never saw his face, only the dark blood seeping between the links of his
hauberk. Going back into that barn was the hardest thing she ever did. Smoke was pouring out the open
door like a writhing black snake, and she could hear the screams of the poor animals inside, donkeys and
horses and men. She chewed her lip, and darted through the doors, crouched low where the smoke
wasn't quite so thick.
A donkey was caught in a ring of fire, shrieking in terror and pain. She could smell the stench of burning
hair. The roof was gone up too, and things were falling down, pieces of flaming wood and bits of straw
and hay. Arya put a hand over her mouth and nose. She couldn't see the wagon for the smoke, but she
could still hear Biter screaming. She crawled toward the sound.
And then a wheel was looming over her. The wagon jumped and moved a half foot when Biter threw
himself against his chains again. Jaqen saw her, but it was too hard to breathe, let alone talk. She threw
the axe into the wagon. Rorge caught it and lifted it over his head, rivers of sooty sweat pouring down his
noseless face. Arya was running, coughing. She heard the steel crash through the old wood, and again,
again. An instant later came a crack as loud as thunder, and the bottom of the wagon came ripping loose
in an explosion of splinters.
Arya rolled headfirst into the tunnel and dropped five feet. She got dirt in her mouth but she didn't care,
the taste was fine, the taste was mud and water and worms and life. Under the earth the air was cool and
dark. Above was nothing but blood and roaring red and choking smoke and the screams of dying horses.
She moved her belt around so Needle would not be in her way, and began to crawl. A dozen feet down
the tunnel she heard the sound, like the roar of some monstrous beast, and a cloud of hot smoke and
black dust came billowing up behind her, smelling of hell. Arya held her breath and kissed the mud on the
floor of the tunnel and cried. For whom, she could not say.
CHAPTER 15


TYRION
The queen was not disposed to wait on Varys. "Treason is vile enough," she declared furiously, "but this
is barefaced naked villainy, and I do not need that mincing eunuch to tell me what must be done with
villains."
Tyrion took the letters from his sister's hand and compared them side by side. There were two copies,
the words exactly alike, though they had been written by different hands.
"Maester Frenken received the first missive at Castle Stokeworth," Grand Maester Pycelle explained.
"The second copy came through Lord Gyles."
Littlefinger fingered his beard. "If Stannis bothered with them, it's past certain every other lord in the
Seven Kingdoms saw a copy as well."
"I want these letters burned, every one," Cersei declared. "No hint of this must reach my son's ears, or
my father's."
"I imagine Father's heard rather more than a hint by now," Tyrion said dryly. "Doubtless Stannis sent a
bird to Casterly Rock, and another to Harrenhal. As for burning the letters, to what point? The song is
sung, the wine is spilled, the wench is pregnant. And this is not as dire as it seems, in truth."
Cersei turned on him in green-eyed fury. "Are you utterly witless? Did you read what he says? The boy
foffrey, he calls him. And he dares to accuse me of incest, adultery, and treason!"
Only because you're guilty. It was astonishing to see how angry Cersei could wax over accusations she
knew perfectly well to be true. If we lose the war, she ought to take up mummery, she has a gift for it.
Tyrion waited until she was done and said, "Stannis must have some pretext to justify his rebellion. What
did you expect him to write? Joffrey is my brother's trueborn son and heir, but I mean to take his throne
for all that'? "
"I will not suffer to be called a whore!"
Why, sister, he never claims faime paid you. Tyrion made a show of glancing over the writing again.
There had been some niggling phrase . . . "Done in the Light of the Lord," he read. "A queer choice of
words, that."
Pycelle cleared his throat. "These words often appear in letters and documents from the Free Cities.
They mean no more than, let us say, written in the sight of god. The god of the red priests. It is their
usage, I do believe."
"Varys told us some years past that Lady Selyse had taken up with a red priest," Littlefinger reminded
them.
Tyrion tapped the paper. "And now it would seem her lord husband has done the same. We can use that
against him. Urge the High Septon to reveal how Stannis has turned against the gods as well as his rightful
king . . . "


"Yes, yes," the queen said impatiently, "but first we must stop this filth from spreading further. The
council must issue an edict. Any man heard speaking of incest or calling Joff a bastard should lose his
tongue for it."
"A prudent measure," said Grand Maester Pycelle, his chain of office clinking as he nodded.
"A folly," sighed Tyrion. "When you tear out a man's tongue, you are not proving him a liar, you're only
telling the world that you fear what he might say."
"So what would you have us do?" his sister demanded.
"Very little. Let them whisper, they'll grow bored with the tale soon enough. Any man with a thimble of
sense will see it for a clumsy attempt to justify usurping the crown. Does Stannis offer proof? How could
he, when it never happened?" Tyrion gave his sister his sweetest smile.
"That's so," she had to say. "Still
"Your Grace, your brother has the right of this." Petyr Baelish steepled his fingers. "If we attempt to
silence this talk, we only lend it credence. Better to treat it with contempt, like the pathetic lie it is. And
meantime, fight fire with fire."
Cersei gave him a measuring look. "What sort of fire?"
"A tale of somewhat the same nature, perhaps. But more easily believed. Lord Stannis has spent most of
his marriage apart from his wife. Not that I fault him, I'd do the same were I married to Lady Selyse.
Nonetheless, if we put it about that her daughter is baseborn and Stannis a cuckold, well . . . the
smallfolk are always eager to believe the worst of their lords, particularly those as stern, sour, and prickly
proud as Stannis Baratheon."
"He has never been much loved, that's true." Cersei considered a moment. "So we pay him back in his
own coin. Yes, I like this. Who can we name as Lady Selyse's lover? She has two brothers, I believe.
And one of her uncles has been with her on Dragonstone all this time . . ."
"Ser Axell Florent is her castellan." Loath as Tyrion was to admit it, Littlefinger's scheme had promise.
Stannis had never been enamored of his wife, but he was bristly as a hedgehog where his honor was
concerned and mistrustful by nature. If they could sow discord between him and his followers, it could
only help their cause. "The child has the Florent ears, I'm told."
Littlefinger gestured languidly. "A trade envoy from Lys once observed to me that Lord Stannis must
love his daughter very well, since he'd erected hundreds of statues of her all along the walls of
Dragonstone. 'My lord' I had to tell him, 'those are gargoyles."' He chuckled. "Ser Axell might serve for
Shireen's father, but in my experience, the more bizarre and shocking a tale the more apt it is to be
repeated. Stannis keeps an especially grotesque fool, a lackwit with a tattooed face."
Grand Maester Pycelle gaped at him, aghast. "Surely you do not mean to suggest that Lady Selyse
would bring a fool into her bed?"
"You'd have to be a fool to want to bed Selyse Florent," said Littlefinger. "Doubtless Patchface
reminded her of Stannis. And the best lies contain within them nuggets of truth, enough to give a listener
pause. As it happens, this fool is utterly devoted to the girl and follows her everywhere. They even look
somewhat alike. Shireen has a mottled, halffrozen face as well."


Pycelle was lost. "But that is from the greyscale that near killed her as a babe, poor thing."
"I like my tale better," said Littlefinger, "and so will the smallfolk. Most of them believe that if a woman
eats rabbit while pregnant, her child will be born with long floppy ears."
Cersei smiled the sort of smile she customarily reserved for Jaime. "Lord Petyr, you are a wicked
creature."
"Thank you, Your Grace."
"And a most accomplished liar," Tyrion added, less warmly. This one is more dangerous than I knew, he
reflected.
Littlefinger's grey-green eyes met the dwarf's mismatched stare with no hint of unease. "We all have our
gifts, my lord."
The queen was too caught up in her revenge to take note of the exchange. "Cuckolded by a halfwit fool!
Stannis will be laughed at in every winesink this side of the narrow sea."
"The story should not come from us," Tyrion said, "or it will be seen for a self-serving lie." Which it is, to
be sure.
Once more Littlefinger supplied the answer. "Whores love to gossip, and as it happens I own a brothel
or three. And no doubt Varys can plant seeds in the alehouses and pot-shops."
"Varys," Cersei said, frowning. "Where is Varys?"
"I have been wondering about that myself, Your Grace."
"The Spider spins his secret webs day and night," Grand Maester Pycelle said ominously. "I mistrust that
one, my lords."
"And he speaks so kindly of you." Tyrion pushed himself off his chair. As it happened, he knew what the
eunuch was about, but it was nothing the other councillors needed to hear. "Pray excuse me, my lords.
Other business calls."
Cersei was instantly suspicious. "King's business?"
"Nothing you need trouble yourself about."
"I'll be the judge of that."
"Would you spoil my surprise?" Tyrion said. "I'm having a gift made for Joffrey. A little chain."
"What does he need with another chain? He has gold chains and silver, more than he can wear. If you
think for a moment you can buy Joff's love with gifts-"
"Why, surely I have the king's love, as he has mine. And this chain I believe he may one day treasure
above all others." The little man bowed and waddled to the door.


Brorm was waiting outside the council chambers to escort him back to the Tower of the Hand. "The
smiths are in your audience chamber, waiting your pleasure," he said as they crossed the ward.
"Waiting my pleasure. I like the ring of that, Bronn. You almost sound a proper courtier. Next you'll be
kneeling."
"Fuck you, dwarf."
"That's Shae's task." Tyrion heard Lady Tanda calling to him merrily from the top of the serpentine steps.
Pretending not to notice her, he waddled a bit faster. "See that my litter is readied, I'll be leaving the
castle as soon as I'm done here." Two of the Moon Brothers had the door guard. Tyrion greeted them
pleasantly, and grimaced before starting up the stairs. The climb to his bedchamber made his legs ache.
Within he found a boy of twelve laying out clothing on the bed; his squire, such that he was. Podrick
Payne was so shy he was furtive.
Tyrion had never quite gotten over the suspicion that his father had inflicted the boy on him as a joke.
"Your garb, my lord," the boy mumbled when Tyrion entered, staring down at his boots. Even when he
worked up the courage to speak, Pod could never quite manage to look at you. "For the audience. And
your chain. The Hand's chain."
"Very good. Help me dress." The doublet was black velvet covered with golden studs in the shape of
lions' heads, the chain a loop of solid gold hands, the fingers of each clasping the wrist of the next. Pod
brought him a cloak of crimson silk fringed in gold, cut to his height. On a normal man, it would be no
more than a half cape.
The Hand's private audience chamber was not so large as the king's, nor a patch on the vastness of the
throne room, but Tyrion liked its Myrish rugs, wall hangings, and sense of intimacy. As he entered, his
steward cried out, "Tyrion Lannister, Hand of the King." He liked that too. The gaggle of smiths,
armorers, and ironmongers that Bronn had collected fell to their knees.
He hoisted himself up into the high seat under the round golden window and bid them rise. "Goodmen, I
know you are all busy, so I will be succinct. Pod, if you please." The boy handed him a canvas sack.
Tyrion yanked the drawstring and upended the bag. Its contents spilled onto the rug with a muffled thunk
of metal on wool. "I had these made at the castle forge. I want a thousand more just like them."
One of the smiths knelt to inspect the object: three immense steel links, twisted together. "A mighty
chain."
"Mighty, but short," the dwarf replied. "Somewhat like me. I fancy one a good deal longer. Do you have
a name?"
"They call me Ironbelly, m'lord." The smith was squat and broad, plainly dressed in wool and leather, but
his arms were as thick as a bull's neck.
"I want every forge in King's Landing turned to making these links and joining them. All other work is to
be put aside. I want every man who knows the art of working metal set to this task, be he master,
journeyman, or apprentice. When I ride up the Street of Steel, I want to hear hammers ringing, night or
day. And I want a man, a strong man, to see that all this is done. Are you that man, Goodman Ironbelly?"


"Might be I am, m'lord. But what of the mail and swords the queen was wanting?"
Another smith spoke up. "Her Grace commanded us to make chainmail and armor, swords and daggers
and axes, all in great numbers. For arming her new gold cloaks, m'lord."
"That work can wait," Tyrion said. "The chain first."
"M'lord, begging your pardon, Her Grace said those as didn't meet
their numbers would have their hands crushed," the anxious Smith persisted. "Smashed on their own
anvils, she said."
Sweet Cersei, always striving to make the smallfolk love us. "No one will have their hands smashed.
You have my word on it."
"Iron is grown dear," Ironbelly declared, "and this chain will be needing much of it, and coke beside, for
the fires."
"Lord Baelish will see that you have coin as you need it," Tyrion promised. He could count on
Littlefinger for that much, he hoped. "I will command the City Watch to help you find iron. Melt down
every horseshoe in this city if you must."
An older man moved forward, richly dressed in a damask tunic with silver fastenings and a cloak lined
with foxfur. He knelt to examine the great steel links Tyrion had dumped on the floor. "My lord," he
announced gravely, "this is crude work at best. There is no art to it. Suitable labor for common smiths, no
doubt, for men who bend horseshoes and hammer out kettles, but I am a master armorer, as it please my
lord. This is no work for me, nor my fellow masters. We make swords as sharp as song, armor such as a
god might wear. Not this."
Tyrion tilted his head to the side and gave the man a dose of his mismatched eyes. "What is your name,
master armorer?"
"Salloreon, as it please my lord. if the King's Hand will permit, I should be most honored to forge him a
suit of armor suitable to his House and high office." Two of the others sniggered, but Salloreon plunged
ahead, heedless. "Plate and scale, I think. The scales gilded bright as the sun, the plate enameled a deep
Lannister crimson. I would suggest a demon's head for a helm, crowned with tall golden horns. When
you ride into battle, men will shrink away in fear."
A demon's head, Tyrion thought ruefully, now what does that say of me? "Master Salloreon, I plan to
fight the rest of my battles from this chair. It's links I need, not demon horns. So let me put it to you this
way. You will make chains, or you will wear them. The choice is yours." He rose, and took his leave with
nary a backward glance.
Bronn was waiting by the gate with his litter and an escort of mounted Black Ears. "You know where
we're bound," Tyrion told him. He accepted a hand up into the litter. He had done all he could to feed the
hungry city-he'd set several hundred carpenters to building fishing boats in place of catapults, opened the
kingswood to any hunter who dared to cross the river, even sent gold cloaks foraging to the west and
South-yet he still saw accusing eyes everywhere he rode. The litter's curtains shielded him from that, and
besides gave him leisure to think.
As they wound their slow way down twisty Shadowblack Lane to the foot of Aegon's High Hill, Tyrion


reflected on the events of the morning. His sister's ire had led her to overlook the true significance of
Stannis
Baratheon's letter. Without proof, his accusations were nothing; what mattered was that he had named
himself a king. And what will Renly make of that? They could not both sit the Iron Throne.
Idly, he pushed the curtain back a few inches to peer out at the streets. Black Ears rode on both sides of
him, their grisly necklaces looped about their throats, while Bronn went in front to clear the way. He
watched the passersby watching him, and played a little game with himself, trying to sort the informers
from the rest. The ones who look the most suspicious are likely innocent, he decided. It's the ones who
look innocent I need to beware.
His destination was behind the hill of Rhaenys, and the streets were crowded. Almost an hour had
passed before the litter swayed to a stop. Tyrion was dozing, but he woke abruptly when the motion
ceased, rubbed the sand from his eyes, and accepted Bronn's hand to climb down.
The house was two stories tall, stone below and timber above. A round turret rose from one corner of
the structure. Many of the windows were leaded. Over the door swung an ornate lamp, a globe of gilded
metal and scarlet glass.
"A brothel," Bronn said. "What do you mean to do here?"
"What does one usually do in a brothel?"
The sellsword laughed. "Shae's not enough?"
"She was pretty enough for a camp follower, but I'm no longer in camp. Little men have big appetites,
and I'm told the girls here are fit for a king."
"Is the boy old enough?"
"Not Joffrey. Robert. This house was a great favorite of his." Although Joffrey may indeed be old
enough. An interesting notion, that. "If you and the Black Ears care to amuse yourselves, feel free, but
Chataya's girls are costly. You'll find cheaper houses all along the street. Leave one man here who'll
know where to find the others when I wish to return."
Bronn nodded. "As you say." The Black Ears were all grins.
Inside the door, a tall woman in flowing silks was waiting for him. She had ebon skin and sandalwood
eyes. "I am Chataya," she announced, bowing deeply. "And you are-"
"Let us not get into the habit of names. Names are dangerous." The air smelled of some exotic spice, and
the floor beneath his feet displayed a mosaic of two women entwined in love. "You have a pleasant
establishment."
"I have labored long to make it so. I am glad the Hand is pleased." Her voice was flowing amber, liquid
with the accents of the distant Summer Isles.
"Titles can be as dangerous as names," Tyrion warned. "Show me a few of your girls."
"It will be my great delight. You will find that they are all as sweet as they are beautiful, and skilled in


every art of love." She swept off gracefully, leaving Tyrion to waddle after as best he could on legs half
the length of hers.
From behind an ornate Myrish screen carved with flowers and fancies and dreaming maidens, they
peered unseen into a common room where an old man was playing a cheerful air on the pipes. In a
cushioned alcove, a drunken Tyroshi with a purple beard dandled a buxom young wench on his knee.
He'd unlaced her bodice and was tilting his cup to pour a thin trickle of wine over her breasts so he might
lap it off. Two other girls sat playing at tiles before a leaded glass window. The freckled one wore a chain
of blue flowers in her honeyed hair. The other had skin as smooth and black as polished jet, wide dark
eyes, small pointed breasts. They dressed in flowing silks cinched at the waist with beaded belts. The
sunlight pouring through the colored glass outlined their sweet young bodies through the thin cloth, and
Tyrion felt a stirring in his groin. "I would respectfully suggest the dark-skinned girl," said Chataya.
"She's young."
"She has sixteen years, my lord."
A good age for Joffrey, he thought, remembering what Brorm had said. His first had been even younger.
Tyrion remembered how shy she'd seemed as he drew her dress up over her head the first time. Long
dark hair and blue eyes you could drown in, and he had. So long ago . . . What a wretched fool you are,
dwarf. "Does she come from your home lands, this girl?"
"Her blood is the blood of summer, my lord, but my daughter was born here in King's Landing." His
surprise must have shown on his face, for Chataya continued, "My people hold that there is no shame to
be found in the pillow house. In the Summer Isles, those who are skilled at giving pleasure are greatly
esteemed. Many highborn youths and maidens serve for a few years after their flowerings, to honor the
gods."
"What do the gods have to do with it?"
"The gods made our bodies as well as our souls, is it not so? They give us voices, so we might worship
them with song. They give us hands, so we might build them temples. And they give us desire, so we
might mate and worship them in that way."
"Remind me to tell the High Septon," said Tyrion. "If I could pray with my cock, I'd be much more
religious." He waved a hand. "I will gladly accept your suggestion."
"I shall summon my daughter. Come."
The girl met him at the foot of the stairs. Taller than Shae, though not so tall as her mother, she had to
kneel before Tyrion could kiss her. "My name is Alayaya," she said, with only the slightest hint of her
mother's
accent. "Come, my lord." She took him by the hand and drew him up two flights of stairs, then down a
long hall. Gasps and shrieks of pleasure were coming from behind one of the closed doors, giggles and
whispers from another. Tyrion's cock pressed against the lacings of his breeches. This could be
humiliating, he thought as he followed Alayaya up another stair to the turret room. There was only one
door. She led him through and closed it. Within the room was a great canopied bed, a tall wardrobe
decorated with erotic carvings, and a narrow window of leaded glass in a pattern of red and yellow
diamonds.


"You are very beautiful, Alayaya," Tyrion told her when they were alone. "From head to heels, every
part of you is lovely. Yet just now the part that interests me most is your tongue."
"My lord will find my tongue well schooled. When I was a girl I learned when to use it, and when not."
"That pleases me." Tyrion smiled. "So what shall we do now? Perchance you have some suggestion?"
"Yes," she said. "If my lord will open the wardrobe, he will find what he seeks."
Tyrion kissed her hand, and climbed inside the empty wardrobe. Alayaya closed it after him. He groped
for the back panel, felt it slide under his fingers, and pushed it all the way aside. The hollow space behind
the walls was pitch-black, but he fumbled until he felt metal. His hand closed around the rung of a ladder.
He found a lower rung with his foot, and started down. Well below street level, the shaft opened onto a
slanting earthen tunnel, where he found Varys waiting with candle in hand.
Varys did not look at all like himself. A scarred face and a stubble of dark beard showed under his
spiked steel cap, and he wore mail over boiled leather, dirk and shortsword at his belt. "Was Chataya's
to your satisfaction, my lord?"
"Almost too much so," admitted Tyrion. "You're certain this woman can be relied on?"
"I am certain of nothing in this fickle and treacherous world, my lord. Chataya has no cause to love the
queen, though, and she knows that she has you to thank for ridding her of Allar Deem. Shall we go?" He
started down the tunnel.
Even his walk is different, Tyrion observed. The scent of sour wine and garlic clung to Varys instead of
lavender. "I like this new garb of yours," he offered as they went.
"The work I do does not permit me to travel the streets amid a column of knights. So when I leave the
castle, I adopt more suitable guises, and thus live to serve you longer."
"Leather becomes you. You ought to come like this to our next council session."
"Your sister would not approve, my lord."
"My sister would soil her smallclothes." He smiled in the dark. "I saw no signs of any of her spies
skulking after me."
"I am pleased to hear it, my lord. Some of your sister's hirelings are mine as well, unbeknownst to her. I
should hate to think they had grown so sloppy as to be seen."
-well, rd hate to think I was climbing through wardrobes and suffering the pangs of frustrated lust all for
naught."
"Scarcely for naught," Varys assured him. "They know you are here. Whether any will be bold enough to
enter Chataya's in the guise of patrons I cannot say, but I find it best to err on the side of caution."
"How is it a brothel happens to have a secret entrance?"
"The tunnel was dug for another King's Hand, whose honor would not allow him to enter such a house
openly. Chataya has closely guarded the knowledge of its existence."


"And yet you knew of it."
"Little birds fly through many a dark tunnel. Careful, the steps are steep."
They emerged through a trap at the back of a stable, having come perhaps a distance of three blocks
under Rhaenys's Hill. A horse whickered in his stall when Tyrion let the door slam shut. Varys blew out
the candle and set it on a beam and Tyrion gazed about. A mule and three horses occupied the stalls. He
waddled over to the piebald gelding and took a look at his teeth. "Old," he said, "and I have my doubts
about his wind."
"He is not a mount to carry you into battle, true," Varys replied, "but he will serve, and attract no notice.
As will the others. And the stableboys see and hear only the animals." The eunuch took a cloak from a
peg. It was roughspun, sun-faded, and threadbare, but very ample in its cut. "If you will permit me."
When he swept it over Tyrion's shoulders it enveloped him head to heel, with a cowl that could be pulled
forward to drown his face in shadows. "Men see what they expect to see," Varys said as he fussed and
pulled. "Dwarfs are not so common a sight as children, so a child is what they will see. A boy in an old
cloak on his father's horse, going about his father's business. Though it would be best if you came most
often by night."
"I plan to . . . after today. At the moment, though, Shae awaits me." He had put her up in a walled manse
at the far northeast corner of King's Landing, not far from the sea, but he had not dared visit her there for
fear of being followed.
"Which horse will you have?"
Tyrion shrugged. "This one will do well enough."
"I shall saddle him for you." Varys took tack and saddle down from a peg.
Tyrion adjusted the heavy cloak and paced restlessly. "You missed a lively council. Stannis has crowned
himself, it seems."
"I know."
"He accuses my brother and sister of incest. I wonder how he came by that suspicion."
"Perhaps he read a book and looked at the color of a bastard's hair, as Ned Stark did, and Jon Arryn
before him. Or perhaps someone whispered it in his ear." The eunuch's laugh was not his usual giggle, but
deeper and more throaty.
"Someone like you, perchance?"
"Am I suspected? It was not me."
"if it had been, would you admit it?"
"No. But why should I betray a secret I have kept so long? It is one thing to deceive a king, and quite
another to hide from the cricket in the rushes and the little bird in the chimney. Besides, the bastards were
there for all to see."


"Robert's bastards? What of them?"
"He fathered eight, to the best of my knowing," Varys said as he wrestled with the saddle. "Their
mothers were copper and honey, chestnut and butter, yet the babes were all black as ravens . . . and as
ill-omened, it would seem. So when Joffrey, Myrcella, and Tommen slid out between your sister's thighs,
each as golden as the sun, the truth was not hard to glimpse."
Tyrion shook his head. If she had borne only one child for her husband, it would have been enough to
disarm suspicion . . . but then she would not have been Cersei. "If you were not this whisperer, who
was?"
"Some traitor, doubtless." Varys tightened the cinch.
"Littlefinger?"
"I named no name."
Tyrion let the eunuch help him mount. "Lord Varys," he said from the saddle, "sometimes I feel as though
you are the best friend I have in King's Landing, and sometimes I feel you are my worst enemy."
"How odd. I think quite the same of you."
CHAPTER 16
BRAN
Long before the first pale fingers of light pried apart Bran's shutters, his eyes were open.
There were guests in Winterfell, visitors come for the harvest feast. This morning they would be tilting at
quintains in the yard. Once that prospect would have filled him with excitement, but that was before.
Not now. The Walders would break lances with the squires of Lord Manderly's escort, but Bran would
have no part of it. He must play the prince in his father's solar. "Listen, and it may be that you will learn
something of what lordship is all about," Maester Luwin had said.
Bran had never asked to be a prince. It was knighthood he had always dreamed of; bright armor and
streaming banners, lance and sword, a warhorse between his legs. Why must he waste his days listening
to old men speak of things he only half understood? Because you're broken, a voice inside reminded him.
A lord on his cushioned chair might be crippled-the Walders said their grandfather was so feeble he had
to be carried everywhere in a litter-but not a knight on his destrier. Besides, it was his duty. "You are
your brother's heir and the Stark in Winterfell," Ser Rodrik said, reminding him of how Robb used to sit
with their lord father when his bannermen came to see him.
Lord Wyman Manderly had arrived from White Harbor two days past, traveling by barge and litter, as
he was too fat to sit a horse. With him had come a long tail of retainers: knights, squires, lesser lords and
ladies,


heralds, musicians, even a juggler, all aglitter with banners and surcoats in what seemed half a hundred
colors. Bran had welcomed them to Winterfell from his father's high stone seat with the direwolves
carved into the arms, and afterward Ser Rodrik had said he'd done well. If that had been the end of it, he
would not have minded. But it was only the beginning.
"The feast makes a pleasant pretext," Ser Rodrik explained, "but a man does not cross a hundred
leagues for a sliver of duck and a sip of wine. Only those who have matters of import to set before us are
like to make the journey."
Bran gazed up at the rough stone ceiling above his head. Robb would tell him not to play the boy, he
knew. He could almost hear him, and their lord father as well. Winter is coming, and you are almost a
man grown, Bran. You have a duty.
When Hodor came bustling in, smiling and humming tunelessly, he found the boy resigned to his fate.
Together they got him washed and brushed. "The white wool doublet today," Bran commanded. "And
the silver brooch. Ser Rodrik will want me to look lordly." As much as he could, Bran preferred to dress
himself, but there were some tasks-pulling on breeches, lacing his boots-that vexed him. They went
quicker with Hodor's help. Once he had been taught to do something, he did it deftly. His hands were
always gentle, though his strength was astonishing. "You could have been a knight too, I bet," Bran told
him. "If the gods hadn't taken your wits, you would have been a great knight."
"Hodor?" Hodor blinked at him with guileless brown eyes, eyes innocent of understanding.
"Yes," said Bran. "Hodor." He pointed.
on the wall beside the door hung a basket, stoutly made of wicker and leather, with holes cut for Bran's
legs. Hodor slid his arms through the straps and cinched the wide belt tight around his chest, then knelt
beside the bed. Bran used the bars sunk into the wall to support himself as he swung the dead weight of
his legs into the basket and through the holes.
"Hodor," Hodor said again, rising. The stableboy stood near seven feet tall all by himself; on his back
Bran's head almost brushed the ceiling. He ducked low as they passed through the door. One time
Hodor smelled bread baking and ran to the kitchens, and Bran got such a crack that Maester Luwin had
to sew up his scalp. Mikken had given him a rusty old visorless helm from the armory, but Bran seldom
troubled to wear it. The Walders laughed whenever they saw it on his head.
He rested his hands on Hodor's shoulders as they descended the winding stair. Outside, the sounds of
sword and shield and horse already rang through the yard. It made a sweet music. I'll just have a look,
Bran thought, a quick look, that's all.
The White Harbor lordlings would emerge later in the morning, with their knights and men-at-arms. Until
then, the yard belonged to their squires, who ranged in age from ten to forty. Bran wished he were one of
them so badly that his stomach hurt with the wanting.
Two quintains had been erected in the courtyard, each a stout post supporting a spinning crossbeam
with a shield at one end and a padded butt at the other. The shields had been painted red-and-gold,
though the Lannister lions were lumpy and misshapen, and already well scarred by the first boys to take a
tilt at them.
The sight of Bran in his basket drew stares from those who had not seen it before, but he had learned to
ignore stares. At least he had a good view; on Hodor's back, he towered over everyone. The Walders


were mounting up, he saw. They'd brought fine armor up from the Twins, shining silver plate with
enameled blue chasings. Big Walder's crest was shaped like a castle, while Little Walder favored
streamers of blue and grey silk. Their shields and surcoats also set them apart from each other. Little
Walder quartered the twin towers of Frey with the brindled boar of his grandmother's House and the
plowman of his mother's: Crakehall and Darry, respectively. Big Walder's quarterings were the
tree-and-ravens of House Blackwood and the twining snakes of the Paeges. They must be hungry for
honor, Bran thought as he watched them take up their lances. A Stark needs only the direwolf.
Their dappled grey coursers were swift, strong, and beautifully trained. Side by side they charged the
quintains. Both hit the shields cleanly and were well past before the padded butts came spinning around.
Little Walder struck the harder blow, but Bran thought Big Walder sat his horse better. He would have
given both his useless legs for the chance to ride against either.
Little Walder cast his splintered lance aside, spied Bran, and reined up. "Now there's an ugly horse," he
said of Hodor.
"Hodor's no horse," Bran said.
"Hodor," said Hodor.
Big Walder trotted up to join his cousin. "Well, he's not as smart as a horse, that's for certain." A few of
the White Harbor lads poked each other and laughed.
"Hodor." Beaming genially, Hodor looked from one Frey to the other, oblivious to their taunting. "Hodor
hodor?"
Little Walder's mount whickered. "See, they're talking to each other. Maybe hodor means 'I love you' in
horse."
"You shut up, Frey." Bran could feel his color rising.
Little Walder spurred his horse closer, giving Hodor a bump that pushed him backward. "What will you
do if I don't?"
"He'll set his wolf on you, cousin," warned Big Walder.
"Let him. I always wanted a wolfskin cloak."
"Summer would tear your fat head off," Bran said.
Little Walder banged a mailed fist against his breastplate. "Does your wolf have steel teeth, to bite
through plate and mail?"
"Enough!" Maester Luwin's voice cracked through the clangor of the yard as loud as a thunderclap.
How much he had overheard, Bran could not say . . . but it was enough to anger him, clearly. "These
threats are unseemly, and I'll hear no more of them. Is this how you behave at the Twins, Walder Frey?"
"If I want to." Atop his courser, Little Walder gave Luwin a sullen glare, as if to say, You are only a
maester, who are you to reproach a Frey of the Crossing?
"Well, it is not how Lady Stark's wards ought behave at Winterfell. What's at the root of this?" The


maester looked at each boy in turn. "One of you will tell me, I swear, or-"
"We were having a jape with Hodor," confessed Big Walder. "I am sorry if we offended Prince Bran.
We only meant to be amusing." He at least had the grace to look abashed.
Little Walder only looked peevish. "And me," he said. "I was only being amusing too."
The bald spot atop the maester's head had turned red, Bran could see; if anything, Luwin was more
angry than before. "A good lord comforts and protects the weak and helpless," he told the Freys. "I will
not have you making Hodor the butt of cruel jests, do you hear me? He's a goodhearted lad, dutiful and
obedient, which is more than I can say for either of you." The maester wagged a finger at Little Walder.
"And you will stay out of the godswood and away from those wolves, or answer for it." Sleeves flapping,
he turned on his heels, stalked off a few paces, and glanced back. "Bran. Come. Lord Wyman awaits."
"Hodor, go with the maester," Bran commanded.
"Hodor," said Hodor. His long strides caught up with the maester's furiously pumping legs on the steps of
the Great Keep. Maester Luwin held the door open, and Bran hugged Hodor's neck and ducked as they
went through.
"The Walders-" he began.
"I'll hear no more of that, it's done." Maester Luwin looked worn-out and frayed. "You were right to
defend Hodor, but you should never have been there. Ser Rodrik and Lord Wyman have broken their
fast already while they waited for you. Must I come myself to fetch you, as if you were a little child?"
"No," Bran said, ashamed. "I'm sorry. I only wanted
"I know what you wanted," Maester Luwin said, more gently. "Would
that it could be, Bran. Do you have any questions before we begin this audience? "
"Will we talk of the war?"
"You will talk of naught." The sharpness was back in Luwin's voice. "You are still a child of eight
"Almost nine!"
"Eight," the maester repeated firmly. "Speak nothing but courtesies unless Ser Rodrik or Lord Wyman
puts you a question."
Bran nodded. "I'll remember."
"I will say nothing to Ser Rodrik of what passed between you and the Frey boys."
"Thank you."
They put Bran in his father's oak chair with the grey velvet cushions, behind a long plank-and-trestle
table. Ser Rodrik sat on his right hand and Maester Luwin to his left, armed with quills and inkpots and a
sheaf of blank parchment to write down all that transpired. Bran ran a hand across the rough wood of the
table and begged Lord Wyman's pardons for being late.


"Why, no prince is ever late," the Lord of White Harbor responded amiably. "Those who arrive before
him have come early, that's all." Wyman Manderly had a great booming laugh. it was small wonder he
could not sit a saddle; he looked as if he outweighed most horses. As windy as he was vast, he began by
asking Winterfell to confirm the new customs officers he had appointed for White Harbor. The old ones
had been holding back silver for King's Landing rather than paying it over to the new King in the North.
"King Robb needs his own coinage as well," he declared, "and White Harbor is the very place to mint it."
He offered to take charge of the matter, as it please the king, and went from that to speak of how he had
strengthened the port's defenses, detailing the cost of every improvement.
In addition to a mint, Lord Manderly also proposed to build Robb a warfleet. "We have had no strength
at sea for hundreds of years, since Brandon the Burner put the torch to his father's ships. Grant me the
gold and within the year I will float you sufficient galleys to take Dragonstone and King's Landing both."
Bran's interest pricked up at talk of warships. No one asked him, but he thought Lord Wyman's notion a
splendid one. In his mind's eye he could see them already. He wondered if a cripple had ever
commanded a warship. But Ser Rodrik promised only to send the proposal on to Robb for his
consideration, while Maester Luwin scratched at the parchment.
Midday came and went. Maester Luwin sent Poxy Tym down to the kitchens, and they dined in the
solar on cheese, capons, and brown oatbread.
While tearing apart a bird with fat fingers, Lord Wyman made polite inquiry after Lady
Hornwood, who was a cousin of his. "She was born a Manderly, you know. Perhaps, when her grief has
run its course, she would like to be a Manderly again, eh?" He took a bite from a wing, and smiled
broadly. "As it happens, I am a widower these past eight years. Past time I took another wife, don't you
agree, my lords? A man does get lonely." Tossing the bones aside, he reached for a leg. "Or if the lady
fancies a younger lad, well, my son Wendel is unwed as well. He is off south guarding Lady Catelyn, but
no doubt he will wish to take a bride on his return. A valiant boy, and jolly. just the man to teach her to
laugh again, eh?" He wiped a bit of grease off his chin with the sleeve of his tunic.
Bran could hear the distant clash of arms through the windows. He cared nothing about marriages. I
wish I was down in the yard.
His lordship waited until the table had been cleared before he raised the matter of a letter he had
received from Lord Tywin Lannister, who held his elder son, Ser Wylis, taken captive on the Green
Fork. "He offers him back to me without ransom, provided I withdraw my levies from His Grace and
vow to fight no more."
"You will refuse him, of course," said Ser Rodrik.
"Have no fear on that count," the lord assured them. "King Robb has no more loyal servant than Wyman
Manderly. I would be loath to see my son languish at Harrenhal any longer than he must, however. That
is an ill place. Cursed, they say. Not that I am the sort to swallow such tales, but still, there it is. Look at
what's befallen this Janos Slynt. Raised up to Lord of Harrenhal by the queen, and cast down by her
brother. Shipped off to the Wall, they say. I pray some equitable exchange of captives can be arranged
before too very long. I know Wylis would not want to sit out the rest of the war. Gallant, that son of
mine, and fierce as a mastiff."
Bran's shoulders were stiff from sitting in the same chair by the time the audience drew to a close. And
that night, as he sat to supper, a horn sounded to herald the arrival of another guest. Lady Donella


Hornwood brought no tail of knights and retainers; only herself, and six tired menat-arms with a
moosehead badge on their dusty orange livery. "We are very sorry for all you have suffered, my lady,"
Bran said when she came before him to speak her words of greetings. Lord Hornwood had been killed
in the battle on the Green Fork, their only son cut down in the Whispering Wood. "Winterfell will
remember."
"That is good to know." She was a pale husk of a woman, every line of her face etched with grief. "I am
very weary, my lord. If I might have leave to rest, I should be thankful."
"To be sure," Ser Rodrik said. "There is time enough for talk on the morrow."
When the morrow came, most of the morning was given over to talk of grains and greens and salting
meat. Once the maesters in their Citadel had proclaimed the first of autumn, wise men put away a portion
of each harvest . . . though how large a portion was a matter that seemed to require much talk. Lady
Hornwood was storing a fifth of her harvest. At Maester Luwin's suggestion, she vowed to increase that
to a quarter.
"Bolton's bastard is massing men at the Dreadfort," she warned them. "I hope he means to take them
south to join his father at the Twins, but when I sent to ask his intent, he told me that no Bolton would be
questioned by a woman. As if he were trueborn and had a right to that name."
"Lord Bolton has never acknowledged the boy, so far as I know," Ser Rodrik said. "I confess, I do not
know him."
"Few do," she replied. "He lived with his mother until two years past, when young Domeric died and left
Bolton without an heir. That was when he brought his bastard to the Dreadfort. The boy is a sly creature
by all accounts, and he has a servant who is almost as cruel as he is. Reek, they call the man. It's said he
never bathes. They hunt together, the Bastard and this Reek, and not for deer. I've heard tales, things I
can scarce believe, even of a Bolton. And now that my lord husband and my sweet son have gone to the
gods, the Bastard looks at my lands hungrily."
Bran wanted to give the lady a hundred men to defend her rights, but Ser Rodrik only said, "He may
look, but should he do more I promise you there will be dire retribution. You will be safe enough, my
lady . . . though perhaps in time, when your grief is passed, you may find it prudent to wed again."
"I am past my childbearing years, what beauty I had long fled," she replied with a tired half smile, "yet
men come sniffing after me as they never did when I was a maid."
"You do not look favorably on these suitors?" asked Luwin.
"I shall wed again if His Grace commands it," Lady Hornwood replied, "but Mors Crowfood is a
drunken brute, and older than my father. As for my noble cousin of Manderly, my lord's bed is not large
enough to hold one of his majesty, and I am surely too small and frail to lie beneath him."
Bran knew that men slept on top of women when they shared a bed. Sleeping under Lord Manderly
would be like sleeping under a fallen horse, he imagined. Ser Rodrik gave the widow a sympathetic nod.
"You will have other suitors, my lady. We shall try and find you a prospect more to your taste."
"Perhaps you need not look very far, ser."
After she had taken her leave, Maester Luwin smiled. "Ser Rodrik, I do believe my lady fancies you."


Ser Rodrik cleared his throat and looked uncomfortable.
"She was very sad," said Bran.
Ser Rodrik nodded. "Sad and gentle, and not at all uncomely for a woman of her years, for all her
modesty. Yet a danger to the peace of your brother's realm nonetheless."
"Her?" Bran said, astonished.
Maester Luwin answered. "With no direct heir, there are sure to be many claimants contending for the
Hornwood lands. The Tallharts, Flints, and Karstarks all have ties to House Hornwood through the
female line, and the Glovers are fostering Lord Harys's bastard at Deepwood Motte. The Dreadfort has
no claim that I know, but the lands adjoin, and Roose Bolton is not one to overlook such a chance."
Ser Rodrik tugged at his whiskers. "In such cases, her liege lord must find her a suitable match."
"Why can't you marry her?" Bran asked. "You said she was comely, and Beth would have a mother."
The old knight put a hand on Bran's arm. "A kindly thought, my prince, but I am only a knight, and
besides too old. I might hold her lands for a few years, but as soon as I died Lady Hornwood would find
herself back in the same mire, and Beth's prospects might be perilous as well."
"Then let Lord Hornwood's bastard be the heir," Bran said, thinking of his half brother Jon.
Ser Rodrik said, "That would please the Glovers, and perhaps Lord Hornwood's shade as well, but I do
not think Lady Hornwood would love us. The boy is not of her blood."
"Still," said Maester Luwin, "it must be considered. Lady Donella is past her fertile years, as she said
herself. if not the bastard, who?"
"May I be excused?" Bran could hear the squires at their swordplay in the yard below, the ring of steel
on steel.
"As you will, my prince," said Ser Rodrik. "You did well." Bran flushed with pleasure. Being a lord was
not so tedious as he had feared, and since Lady Hornwood had been so much briefer than Lord
Manderly, he even had a few hours of daylight left to visit with Summer. He liked to spend time with his
wolf every day, when Ser Rodrik and the maester allowed it.
No sooner had Hodor entered the godswood than Summer emerged from under an oak, almost as if he
had known they were coming. Bran glimpsed a lean black shape watching from the undergrowth as well.
"Shaggy," he called. "Here, Shaggydog. To me." But Rickon's wolf vanished as swiftly as he'd appeared.
Hodor knew Bran's favorite place, so he took him to the edge of the pool beneath the great spread of
the heart tree, where Lord Eddard used
to kneel to pray. Ripples were running across the surface of the water when they arrived, making the
reflection of the weirwood shimmer and dance. There was no wind, though. For an instant Bran was
baffled.
And then Osha exploded up out of the pool with a great splash, so sudden that even Summer leapt


back, snarling. Hodor jumped away, wailing "Hodor, Hodor" in dismay until Bran patted his shoulder to
soothe his fears. "How can you swim in there?" he asked Osha. "Isn't it cold?"
"As a babe I suckled on icicles, boy. I like the cold." Osha swam to the rocks and rose dripping. She
was naked, her skin bumpy with gooseprickles. Summer crept close and sniffed at her. "I wanted to
touch the bottom."
"I never knew there was a bottom."
"Might be there isn't." She grinned. "What are you staring at, boy? Never seen a woman before?"
"I have so." Bran had bathed with his sisters hundreds of times and he'd seen serving women in the hot
pools too. Osha looked different, though, hard and sharp instead of soft and curvy. Her legs were all
sinew, her breasts flat as two empty purses. "You've got a lot of scars."
"Every one hard earned." She picked up her brown shift, shook some leaves off of it, and pulled it down
over her head.
"Fighting giants?" Osha claimed there were still giants beyond the Wall. One day maybe IT even see one
. . .
"Fighting men." She belted herself with a length of rope. "Black crows, oft as not. Killed me one too,"
she said, shaking out her hair. It had grown since she'd come to Winterfell, well down past her ears. She
looked softer than the woman who had once tried to rob and kill him in the wolfswood. "Heard some
yattering in the kitchen today about you and them Freys."
"Who? What did they say?"
She gave him a sour grin. "That it's a fool boy who mocks a giant, and a mad world when a cripple has
to defend him."
"Hodor never knew they were mocking him," Bran said. "Anyhow he never fights." He remembered
once when he was little, going to the market square with his mother and Septa Mordane. They brought
Hodor to carry for them, but he had wandered away, and when they found him some boys had him
backed into an alley, poking him with sticks. "Hodor!" he kept shouting, cringing and covering himself,
but he had never raised a hand against his tormentors. "Septon Chayle says he has a gentle spirit."
"Aye," she said, "and hands strong enough to twist a man's head off his shoulders, if he takes a mind to.
All the same, he better watch his
back around that Walder. Him and you both. The big one they call little, it comes to me he's well named.
Big outside, little inside, and mean down to the bones."
"He'd never dare hurt me. He's scared of Summer, no matter what he says."
"Then might be he's not so stupid as he seems." Osha was always wary around the direwolves. The day
she was taken, Summer and Grey Wind between them had torn three wildlings to bloody pieces. "Or
might be he is. And that tastes of trouble too." She tied up her hair. "You have more of them wolf
dreams?"
"No." He did not like to talk about the dreams.


"A prince should lie better than that." Osha laughed. "Well, your dreams are your business. Mine's in the
kitchens, and I'd best be getting back before Gage starts to shouting and waving that big wooden spoon
of his. By your leave, my prince."
She should never have talked about the wolf dreams, Bran thought as Hodor carried him up the steps to
his bedchamber. He fought against sleep as long as he could, but in the end it took him as it always did.
On this night he dreamed of the weirwood. it was looking at him with its deep red eyes, calling to him
with its twisted wooden mouth, and from its pale branches the three-eyed crow came flapping, pecking
at his face and crying his name in a voice as sharp as swords.
The blast of horns woke him. Bran pushed himself onto his side, grateful for the reprieve. He heard
horses and boisterous shouting. More guests have come, and half-drunk by the noise of them. Grasping
his bars he pulled himself from the bed and over to the window seat. On their banner was a giant in
shattered chains that told him that these were Umber men, down from the northlands beyond the Last
River.
The next day two of them came together to audience; the Greatjon's uncles, blustery men in the winter of
their days with beards as white as the bearskin cloaks they wore. A crow had once taken Mors for dead
and pecked out his eye, so he wore a chunk of dragonglass in its stead. As Old Nan told the tale, he'd
grabbed the crow in his fist and bitten its head off, so they named him Crowfood. She would never tell
Bran why his gaunt brother Hother was called Whoresbane.
No sooner had they been seated than Mors asked for leave to wed Lady Hornwood. "The Greatjon's
the Young Wolf's strong right hand, all know that to be true. Who better to protect the widow's lands
than an Umber, and what Umber better than me?"
"Lady Donella is still grieving," Maester Luwin said.
"I have a cure for grief under my furs." Mors laughed. Ser Rodrik thanked him courteously and promised
to bring the matter before the lady and the king.
Hother wanted ships. "There's wildlings stealing down from the north, more than I've ever seen before.
They cross the Bay of Seals in little boats and wash up on our shores. The crows in Eastwatch are too
few to stop them, and they go to ground quick as weasels. It's longships we need, aye, and strong men to
sail them. The Greatjon took too many. Half our harvest is gone to seed for want of arms to swing the
scythes."
Ser Rodrik pulled at his whiskers. "You have forests of tall pine and old oak. Lord Manderly has
shipwrights and sailors in plenty. Together you ought to be able to float enough longships to guard both
your coasts."
"Manderly?" Mors Umber snorted. "That great waddling sack of suet? His own people mock him as
Lord Lamprey, I've heard. The man can scarce walk. If you stuck a sword in his belly, ten thousand eels
would wriggle out."
"He is fat," Ser Rodrik admitted, "but he is not stupid. You will work with him, or the king will know the
reason why." And to Bran's astonishment, the truculent Umbers agreed to do as he commanded, though
not without grumbling.
While they were sitting at audience, the Glover men arrived from Deepwood Motte, and a large party of


Tallharts from Torrhen's Square. Galbart and Robett Glover had left Deepwood in the hands of Robett's
wife, but it was their steward who came to Winterfell. "My lady begs that you excuse her absence. Her
babes are still too young for such a journey, and she was loath to leave them." Bran soon realized that it
was the steward, not Lady Glover, who truly ruled at Deepwood Motte. The man allowed that he was at
present setting aside only a tenth of his harvest. A hedge wizard had told him there would be a bountiful
spirit summer before the cold set in, he claimed. Maester Luwin had a number of choice things to say
about hedge wizards. Ser Rodrik commanded the man to set aside a fifth, and questioned the steward
closely about Lord Hornwood's bastard, the boy Larence Snow. in the north, all highborn bastards took
the surname Snow This lad was near twelve, and the steward praised his wits and courage.
"Your notion about the bastard may have merit, Bran," Maester Luwin said after. "One day you will be a
good lord for Winterfell, I think.,,
"No I won't." Bran knew he would never be a lord, no more than he could be a knight. "Robb's to marry
some Frey girl, you told me so yourself, and the Walders say the same. He'll have sons, and they'll be the
lords of Winterfell after him, not me."
"It may be so, Bran," Ser Rodrik said, "but I was wed three times and my wives gave me daughters.
Now only Beth remains to me. My brother Martyn fathered four strong sons, yet only Jory lived to be a
man. When
he was slain, Martyn's line died with him. When we speak of the morrow nothing is ever certain."
Leobald Tallhart had his turn the following day. He spoke of weather portents and the slack wits of
smallfolk, and told how his nephew itched for battle. "Benfred has raised his own company of lances.
Boys, none older than nineteen years, but every one thinks he's another young wolf. When I told them
they were only young rabbits, they laughed at me. Now they call themselves the Wild Hares and gallop
about the country with rabbitskins tied to the ends of their lances, singing songs of chivalry."
Bran thought that sounded grand. He remembered Benfred Tallhart, a big bluff loud boy who had often
visited Winterfell with his father, Ser Helman, and had been friendly with Robb and with Theon Greyjoy.
But Ser Rodrik was clearly displeased by what he heard. "If the king were in need of more men, he
would send for them," he said. "Instruct your nephew that he is to remain at Torrhen's Square, as his lord
father commanded."
"I will, ser," said Leobald, and only then raised the matter of Lady Hornwood. Poor thing, with no
husband to defend her lands nor son to inherit. His own lady wife was a Hornwood, sister to the late
Lord Halys, doubtless they recalled. "An empty hall is a sad one. I had a thought to send my younger son
to Lady Donella to foster as her own. Beren is near ten, a likely lad, and her own nephew. He would
cheer her, I am certain, and perhaps he would even take the name Hornwood
"If he were named heir?" suggested Maester Luwin.
". . . so the House might continue," finished Leobald.
Bran knew what to say. "Thank you for the notion, my lord," he blurted out before Ser Rodrik could
speak. "We will bring the matter to my brother Robb. Oh, and Lady Hornwood."
Leobald seemed surprised that he had spoken. "I'm grateful, my prince," he said, but Bran saw pity in his
pale blue eyes, mingled perhaps with a little gladness that the cripple was, after all, not his son. For a
moment he hated the man.


Maester Luwin liked him better, though. "Beren Tallhart may well be our best answer," he told them
when Leobald had gone. "By blood he is half Hornwood. If he takes his uncle's name . . ."
". . . he will still be a boy," said Ser Rodrik, "and hard-pressed to hold his lands against the likes of Mors
Umber or this bastard of Roose Bolton's. We must think on this carefully. Robb should have our best
counsel before he makes his decision."
"It may come down to practicalities," said Maester Luwin. "Which lord he most needs to court. The
riverlands are part of his realm, he may
wish to cement the alliance by wedding Lady Hornwood to one of the lords of the Trident. A
Blackwood, perhaps, or a Frey-"
"Lady Hornwood can have one of our Freys," said Bran. "She can have both of them if she likes."
"You are not kind, my prince," Ser Rodrik chided gently.
Neither are the WaIders. Scowling, Bran stared down at the table and said nothing.
In the days that followed, ravens arrived from other lordly houses, bearing regrets. The bastard of the
Dreadfort would not be joining them, the Mormonts and Karstarks had all gone south with Robb, Lord
Locke was too old to dare the journey, Lady Flint was heavy with child, there was sickness at Widow's
Watch. Finally all of the principal vassals of House Stark had been heard from save for Howland Reed
the crannogman, who had not set foot outside his swamps for many a year, and the Cerwyns whose
castle lay a half day's ride from Winterfell. Lord Cerwyn was a captive of the Lannisters, but his son, a
lad of fourteen, arrived one bright, blustery morning at the head of two dozen lances. Bran was riding
Dancer around the yard when they came through the gate. He trotted over to greet them. Cley Cerwyn
had always been a friend to Bran and his brothers.
"Good morrow, Bran," Cley called out cheerfully. "Or must I call you Prince Bran now?"
"Only if you want."
Cley laughed. "Why not? Everyone else is a king or prince these days. Did Stannis write Winterfell as
well?"
"Stannis? I don't know."
"He's a king now too," Cley confided. "He says Queen Cersei bedded her brother, so Joffrey is a
bastard."
"loffrey the Illborn," one of the Cerwyn knights growled. "Small wonder he's faithless, with the
Kingslayer for a father."
"Aye," said another, "the gods hate incest. Look how they brought down the Targaryens."
For a moment Bran felt as though he could not breathe. A giant hand was crushing his chest. He felt as
though he was falling, and clutched desperately at Dancer's reins.
His terror must have shown on his face. "Bran?" Cley Cerwyn said. "Are you unwell? It's only another


king."
"Robb will beat him too." He turned Dancer's head toward the stables, oblivious to the puzzled stares
the Cerwyns gave him. His blood was roaring in his ears, and had he not been strapped onto his saddle
he might well have fallen.
That night Bran prayed to his father's gods for dreamless sleep. If the
gods heard, they mocked his hopes, for the nightmare they sent was worse than any wolf dream.
"Fly or die!" cried the three-eyed crow as it pecked at him. He wept and pleaded but the crow had no
pity. It put out his left eye and then his right, and when he was blind in the dark it pecked at his brow,
driving its terrible sharp beak deep into his skull. He screamed until he was certain his lungs must burst.
The pain was an axe splitting his head apart, but when the crow wrenched out its beak all slimy with bits
of bone and brain, Bran could see again. What he saw made him gasp in fear. He was clinging to a tower
miles high, and his fingers were slipping, nails scrabbling at the stone, his legs dragging him down, stupid
useless dead legs. "Help me!" he cried. A golden man appeared in the sky above him and pulled him up.
"The things I do for love," he murmured softly as he tossed him out kicking into empty air.
CHAPTER 17
TYRION
"I do not sleep as I did when I was younger," Grand Maester Pycelle told him, by way of apology for
the dawn meeting. "I would sooner
be up, though the world be dark, than lie restless abed, fretting on tasks undone," he said-though his
heavy-lidded eyes made him look half-asleep as he said it.
in the airy chambers beneath the rookery, his girl served them boiled eggs, stewed plums, and porridge,
while Pycelle served the pontifications. "In these sad times, when so many hunger, I think it only fitting to
keep my table spare."
"Commendable," Tyrion admitted, breaking a large brown egg that reminded him unduly of the Grand
Maester's bald spotted head. "I take a different view. If there is food I eat it, in case there is none on the
morrow." He smiled. "Tell me, are your ravens early risers as well?"
Pycelle stroked the snowy beard that flowed down his chest. "To be sure. Shall I send for quill and ink
after we have eaten?"
"No need." Tyrion laid the letters on the table beside his porridge, twin parchments tightly rolled and
sealed with wax at both ends. "Send your girl away, so we can talk."
"Leave us, child," Pycelle commanded. The serving girl hurried from the room. "These letters, now . . ."
"For the eyes of Doran Martell, Prince of Dorne." Tyrion peeled the cracked shell away from his egg
and took a bite. It wanted salt. "One


letter, in two copies. Send your swiftest birds. The matter is of great import."
"I shall dispatch them as soon as we have broken our fast."
"Dispatch them now. Stewed plums will keep. The realm may not. Lord Renly is leading his host up the
roseroad, and no one can say when Lord Stannis will sail from Dragonstone."
Pycelle blinked. "If my lord prefers-"
"He does."
"I am here to serve." The maester pushed himself ponderously to his feet his chain of office clinking
softly. It was a heavy thing, a dozen maester's collars threaded around and through each other and
ornamented with gemstones. And it seemed to Tyrion that the gold and silver and platinum links far
outnumbered those of baser metals.
Pycelle moved so slowly that Tyrion had time to finish his egg and taste the plums-overcooked and
watery, to his taste-before the sound of wings prompted him to rise. He spied the raven, dark in the
dawn sky, and turned briskly toward the maze of shelves at the far end of the room.
The maester's medicines made an impressive display; dozens of pots sealed with wax, hundreds of
stoppered vials, as many milkglass bottles, countless jars of dried herbs, each container neatly labeled in
Pycelle's precise hand. An orderly mind, Tyrion reflected, and indeed, once you puzzled out the
arrangement, it was easy to see that every potion had its place. And such interesting things. He noted
sweetsleep and nightshade, milk of the poppy, the tears of Lys, powdered greycap, wolfsbane and
demon's dance, basilisk venom, blindeye, widow's blood . . .
Standing on his toes and straining upward, he managed to pull a small dusty bottle off the high shelf.
When he read the label, he smiled and slipped it up his sleeve.
He was back at the table peeling another egg when Grand Maester Pycelle came creeping down the
stairs. "It is done, my lord." The old man seated himself. "A matter like this . . . best done promptly,
indeed,indeed . . . of great import, you say?"
"Oh, yes." The porridge was too thick, Tyrion felt, and wanted butter and honey. To be sure, butter and
honey were seldom seen in King's Landing of late, though Lord Gyles kept them well supplied in the
castle. Half of the food they ate these days came from his lands or Lady Tanda's. Rosby and Stokeworth
lay near the city to the north, and were yet untouched by war.
"The Prince of Dorne, himself. Might I ask
"Best not."
"As you say." Pycelle's curiosity was so ripe that Tyrion could almost taste it. "Mayhaps . . . the king's
council . . ."
Tyrion tapped his wooden spoon against the edge of the bowl. "The council exists to advise the king,
Maester."
"Just so," said Pycelle, "and the king-"


"-is a boy of thirteen. I speak with his voice."
"So you do. Indeed. The King's Own Hand. Yet . . . your most gracious sister, our Queen Regent, she .
. ."
". . . bears a great weight upon those lovely white shoulders of hers. I have no wish to add to her
burdens. Do you?" Tyrion cocked his head and gave the Grand Maester an inquiring stare.
Pycelle dropped his gaze back to his food. Something about Tyrion's mismatched green-and-black eyes
made men squirm; knowing that, he made good use of them. "Ah," the old man muttered into his plums.
"Doubtless you have the right of it, my lord. It is most considerate of you to . . . spare her this . . .
burden."
"That's just the sort of fellow I am." Tyrion returned to the unsatisfactory porridge. "Considerate. Cersei
is my own sweet sister, after all."
"And a woman, to be sure," Grand Maester Pycelle said. "A most uncommon woman, and yet . . . it is
no small thing, to tend to all the cares of the realm, despite the frailty of her sex . . ."
Oh, yes, she's a frail dove, just ask Eddard Stark. "I'm pleased you share my concern. And I thank you
for the hospitality of your table. But a long day awaits." He swung his legs out and clambered down from
his chair. "Be so good as to inform me at once should we receive a reply from Dorne? "
"As you say, my lord."
"And only me?"
"Ah . . . to be sure." Pycelle's spotted hand was clutching at his beard the way a drowning man clutches
for a rope. It made Tyrion's heart glad. One, he thought.
He waddled out into the lower bailey; his stunted legs complained of the steps. The sun was well up
now, and the castle was stirring. Guardsmen walked the walls, and knights and men-at-arms were
training with blunted weapons. Nearby, Brorm sat on the lip of a well. A pair of comely serving girls
sauntered past carrying a wicker basket of rushes between them, but the sellsword never looked.
"Brorm, I despair of you." Tyrion gestured at the wenches. "With sweet sights like that before you, all
you see is a gaggle of louts raising a clangor."
"There are a hundred whorehouses in this city where a clipped copper will buy me all the cunt I want,"
Brorm answered, "but one day my life may hang on how close I've watched your louts." He stood.
"Who's the boy in the checkered blue surcoat with the three eyes on his shield?"
"Some hedge knight. Tallad, he names himself. Why?"
Bronn pushed a fall of hair from his eyes. "He's the best of them. But watch him, he falls into a rhythm,
delivering the same strokes in the same order each time he attacks." He grinned. "That will be the death
of him, the day he faces me."
"He's pledged to Joffrey; he's not like to face you." They set off across the bailey, Brorm matching his
long stride to Tyrion's short one. These days the sellsword was looking almost respectable. His dark hair
was washed and brushed, he was freshly shaved, and he wore the black breastplate of an officer of the


City Watch. From his shoulders trailed a cloak of Lannister crimson patterned with golden hands. Tyrion
had made him a gift of it when he named-him captain of his personal guard. "How many supplicants do
we have today?" he inquired.
"Thirty odd," answered Brorm. "Most with complaints, or wanting something, as ever. Your pet was
back."
He groaned. "Lady Tanda?"
"Her page. She invites you to sup with her again. There's to be a haunch of venison, she says, a brace of
stuffed geese sauced with mulberries, and-"
"-her daughter," Tyrion finished sourly. Since the hour he had arrived in the Red Keep, Lady Tanda had
been stalking him, armed with a never-ending arsenal of lamprey pies, wild boars, and savory cream
stews. Somehow she had gotten the notion that a dwarf lordling would be the perfect consort for her
daughter Lollys, a large, soft, dim-witted girl who rumor said was still a maid at thirty-and-three. "Send
her my regrets."
"No taste for stuffed goose?" Bronn grinned evilly.
"Perhaps you should eat the goose and marry the maid. Or better still, send Shagga."
"Shagga's more like to eat the maid and marry the goose," observed Bronn. "Anyway, Lollys outweighs
him."
"There is that," Tyrion admitted as they passed under the shadow of a covered walkway between two
towers. "Who else wants me?"
The sellsword grew more serious. "There's a moneylender from Braavos, holding fancy papers and the
like, requests to see the king about payment on some loan."
"As if Joff could count past twenty. Send the man to Littlefinger, he'll find a way to put him off. Next?"
"A lordling down from the Trident, says your father's men burned his keep, raped his wife, and killed all
his peasants."
"I believe they call that war." Tyrion smelled Gregor Clegane's work, or that of Ser Amory Lorch or his
father's other pet hellhound, the Qohorik. "What does he want of Joffrey?"
"New peasants," Bronn said. "He walked all this way to sing how loyal he is and beg for recompense."
"I'll make time for him on the morrow." Whether truly loyal or merely desperate, a compliant river lord
might have his uses. "See that he's given a comfortable chamber and a hot meal. Send him a new pair of
boots as well, good ones, courtesy of King Joffrey." A show of generosity never hurt.
Brorm gave a curt nod. "There's also a great gaggle of bakers, butchers, and greengrocers clamoring to
be heard."
"I told them last time, I have nothing to give them." Only a thin trickle of food was coming into King's
Landing, most of it earmarked for castle and garrison. Prices had risen sickeningly high on greens, roots,
flour, and fruit, and Tyrion did not want to think about what sorts of flesh might be going into the kettles


of the pot-shops down in Flea Bottom. Fish, he hoped. They still had the river and the sea . . . at least
until Lord Stannis sailed.
"They want protection. Last night a baker was roasted in his own oven. The mob claimed he charged
too much for bread."
"Did he?"
"He's not apt to deny it."
"They didn't eat him, did they?"
"Not that I've heard."
"Next time they will," Tyrion said grimly. "I give them what protection I can. The gold cloaks-"
"They claim there were gold cloaks in the mob," Brorm said. "They're demanding to speak to the king
himself."
"Fools." Tyrion had sent them off with regrets; his nephew would send them off with whips and spears.
He was half-tempted to allow it . . . but no, he dare not. Soon or late, some enemy would march on
King's Landing, and the last thing he wanted was willing traitors within the city walls. "Tell them King
Joffrey shares their fears and will do all he can for them."
"They want bread, not promises."
"If I give them bread today, on the morrow I'll have twice as many at the gates. Who else?"
"A black brother down from the Wall. The steward says he brought some rotted hand in a jar."
Tyrion smiled wanly. "I'm surprised no one ate it. I suppose I ought to see him. It's not Yoren,
perchance?"
"No. Some knight. Thorne."
"Ser Alliser Thorne?" Of all the black brothers he'd met on the Wall, Tyrion Lannister had liked Ser
Alliser Thorne the least. A bitter, meanspirited
man with too great a sense of his own worth. "Come to think on it, I don't believe I care to see
Ser Alliser just now. Find him a snug cell where no one has changed the rushes in a year, and let his hand
rot a little more."
Bronn snorted laughter and went his way, while Tyrion struggled up the serpentine steps. As he limped
across the outer yard, he heard the portcullis rattling up. His sister and a large party were waiting by the
main gate.
Mounted on her white palfrey, Cersei towered high above him, a goddess in green. "Brother," she called
out, not warmly. The queen had not been pleased by the way he'd dealt with Janos Slynt.
"Your Grace." Tyrion bowed politely. "You look lovely this morning." Her crown was gold, her cloak
ermine. Her retinue sat their mounts behind her: Ser Boros Blount of the Kingsguard, wearing white scale


and his favorite scowl; Ser Balon Swann, bow slung from his silver-inlay saddle; Lord Gyles Rosby, his
wheezing cough worse than ever; Hallyne the Pyromancer of the Alchemists' Guild; and the queen's
newest favorite, their cousin Ser Lancel Lannister, her late husband's squire upjumped to knight at his
widow's insistence. Vylarr and twenty guardsmen rode escort. "Where are you bound this day, sister?"
Tyrion asked.
"I'm making a round of the gates to inspect the new scorpions and spitfires. I would not have it thought
that all of us are as indifferent to the city's defense as you seem to be." Cersei fixed him with those clear
green eyes of hers, beautiful even in their contempt. "I am informed that Renly Baratheon has marched
from Highgarden. He is making his way up the roseroad, with all his strength behind him."
"Varys gave me the same report."
"He could be here by the full moon."
"Not at his present leisurely pace," Tyrion assured her. "He feasts every night in a different castle, and
holds court at every crossroads he passes."
"And every day, more men rally to his banners. His host is now said to be a hundred thousand strong."
"That seems rather high."
"He has the power of Storm's End and Highgarden behind him, you little fool," Cersei snapped down at
him. "All the Tyrell bannermen but for the Redwynes, and you have me to thank for that. So long as I
hold those poxy twins of his, Lord Paxter will squat on the Arbor and count himself fortunate to be out of
it."
"A pity you let the Knight of Flowers slip through your pretty fingers. Still, Renly has other concerns
besides us. Our father at Harrenhal, Robb Stark at Riverrun . . . were I he, I would do much as he is
doing. Make
my progress, flaunt my power for the realm to see, watch, wait. Let my rivals contend while I bide my
own sweet time. If Stark defeats us, the south will fall into Renly's hands like a windfall from the gods,
and he'll not have lost a man. And if it goes the other way, he can descend on us while we are
weakened."
Cersei was not appeased. "I want you to make Father bring his army to King's Landing."
Where it will serve no purpose but to make you feel safe. "When have I ever been able to make Father
do anything?"
She ignored the question. "And when do you plan to free Jaime? He's worth a hundred of you."
Tyrion grinned crookedly. "Don't tell Lady Stark, I beg you. We don't have a hundred of me to trade."
"Father must have been mad to send you. You're worse than useless." The queen jerked on her reins
and wheeled her palfrey around. She rode out the gate at a brisk trot, ermine cloak streaming behind her.
Her retinue hastened after.
In truth, Renly Baratheon did not frighten Tyrion half so much as his brother Stannis did. Renly was
beloved of the commons, but he had never before led men in war. Stannis was otherwise: hard, cold,


inexorable. if only they had some way of knowing what was happening on Dragonstone . . . but not one
of the fisherfolk he had paid to spy out the island had ever returned, and even the informers the eunuch
claimed to have placed in Stannis's household had been ominously silent. The striped hulls of Lysene war
galleys had been seen offshore, though, and Varys had reports from Myr of sellsail captains taking
service with Dragonstone. ff Stannis attacks by sea while his brother Renly storms the gates, they'll soon
be mounting foffrey's head on a spike. Worse, mine will be beside him. A depressing thought. He ought
to make plans to get Shae safely out of the city, should the worst seem likely.
Podrick Payne stood at the door of his solar, studying the floor. "He's inside," he announced to Tyrion's
belt buckle. "Your solar. My lord. Sorry."
Tyrion sighed. "Look at me, Pod. It unnerves me when you talk to my codpiece, especially when I'm not
wearing one. Who is inside my solar?"
"Lord Littlefinger." Podrick managed a quick look at his face, then hastily dropped his eyes. "I meant,
Lord Petyr. Lord Baelish. The master of coin. "
"You make him sound a crowd." The boy hunched down as if struck, making Tyrion feel absurdly guilty.
Lord Petyr was seated on his window seat, languid and elegant in a plush plum-colored doublet and a
yellow satin cape, one gloved hand
resting on his knee. "The king is fighting hares with a crossbow," he said. "The hares are winning. Come
see."
Tyrion had to stand on his toes to get a look. A dead hare lay on the ground below; another, long ears
twitching, was about to expire from the bolt in his side. Spent quarrels lay strewn across the hard-packed
earth like straws scattered by a storm. "Now!" Joff shouted. The gamesman released the hare he was
holding, and he went bounding off. Joffrey jerked the trigger on the crossbow. The bolt missed by two
feet. The hare stood on his hind legs and twitched his nose at the king. Cursing, Joff spun the wheel to
winch back his string, but the animal was gone before he was loaded. "Another!" The gamesman reached
into the hutch. This one made a brown streak against the stones, while Joffrey's hurried shot almost took
Ser Preston in the groin.
Littlefinger turned away. "Boy, are you fond of potted hare?" he asked Podrick Payne.
Pod stared at the visitor's boots, lovely things of red-dyed leather ornamented with black scrollwork.
"To eat, my lord?"
"Invest in pots," Littlefinger advised. "Hares will soon overrun the castle. We'll be eating hare thrice a
day."
"Better than rats on a skewer," said Tyrion. "Pod, leave us. Unless Lord Petyr would care for some
refreshment?"
"Thank you, but no." Littlefinger flashed his mocking smile. "Drink with the dwarf, it's said, and you
wake up walking the Wall. Black brings out my unhealthy pallor."
Have no fear, my lord, Tyrion thought, it's not the Wall I have in mind for you. He seated himself in a
high chair piled with cushions and said, "You look very elegant today, my lord."


"I'm wounded. I strive to look elegant every day."
"Is the doublet new?"
"It is. You're most observant."
"Plum and yellow. Are those the colors of your House?"
"No. But a man gets bored wearing the same colors day in and day out, or so I've found."
"That's a handsome knife as well."
"Is it?" There was mischief in Littlefinger's eyes. He drew the knife and glanced at it casually, as if he had
never seen it before. "Valyrian steel, and a dragonbone hilt. A trifle plain, though. It's yours, if you would
like it."
"Mine?" Tyrion gave him a long look. "No. I think not. Never mine." He knows, the insolent wretch. He
knows and he knows that I know, and he thinks that I cannot touch him.
if ever truly a man had armored himself in gold, it was Petyr Baelish, not Jaime Lannister. Jaime's famous
armor was but gilded steel, but
Littlefinger, ah . . . Tyrion had learned a few things about sweet Petyr, to his growing disquiet.
Ten years ago, Jon Arryn had given him a minor sinecure in customs, where Lord Petyr had soon
distinguished himself by bringing in three times as much as any of the king's other collectors. King Robert
had been a prodigious spender. A man like Petyr Baelish, who had a gift for rubbing two golden dragons
together to breed a third, was invaluable to his Hand. Littlefinger's rise had been arrow-swift. Within
three years of his coming to court, he was master of coin and a member of the small council, and today
the crown's revenues were ten times what they had been under his beleaguered predecessor . . . though
the crown's debts had grown vast as well. A master juggler was Petyr Baelish.
Oh, he was clever. He did not simply collect the gold and lock it in a treasure vault, no. He paid the
king's debts in promises, and put the king's gold to work. He bought wagons, shops, ships, houses. He
bought grain when it was plentiful and sold bread when it was scarce. He bought wool from the north and
linen from the south and lace from Lys, stored it, moved it, dyed it, sold it. The golden dragons bred and
multiplied, and Littlefinger lent them out and brought them home with hatchlings.
And in the process, he moved his own men into place. The Keepers of the Keys were his, all four. The
King's Counter and the King's Scales were men he'd named. The officers in charge of all three mints.
Harbormasters, tax farmers, customs sergeants, wool factors, toll collectors, pursers, wine factors; nine
of every ten belonged to Littlefinger. They were men of middling birth, by and large; merchants' sons,
lesser lordlings, sometimes even foreigners, but judging from their results, far more able than their
highborn predecessors.
No one had ever thought to question the appointments, and why should they? Littlefinger was no threat
to anyone. A clever, smiling, genial man, everyone's friend, always able to find whatever gold the king or
his Hand required, and yet of such undistinguished birth, one step up from a hedge knight, he was not a
man to fear. He had no banners to call, no army of retainers, no great stronghold, no holdings to speak
of, no prospects of a great marriage.


But do I dare touch him? Tyrion wondered. Even if he is a traitor? He was not at all certain he could,
least of all now, while the war raged. Given time, he could replace Littlefinger's men with his own in key
positions, but . . .
A shout rang up from the yard. "Ah, His Grace has killed a hare," Lord Baelish observed.
"No doubt a slow one," Tyrion said. "My lord, you were fostered at Riverrun. I've heard it said that you
grew close to the Tullys."
"You might say so. The girls especially."
"How close?"
"I had their maidenhoods. Is that close enough?"
The lie-Tyrion was fairly certain it was a lie-was delivered with such an air of nonchalance that one could
almost believe it. Could it have been Catelyn Stark who lied? About her defloration, and the dagger as
well? The longer he lived, the more Tyrion realized that nothing was simple and little was true. "Lord
Hoster's daughters do not love me," he confessed. "I doubt they would listen to any proposal I might
make. Yet coming from you, the same words might fall more sweetly on their ears. "
"That would depend on the words. If you mean to offer Sansa in return for your brother, waste someone
else's time. Joffrey will never surrender his plaything, and Lady Catelyn is not so great a fool as to barter
the Kingslayer for a slip of a girl."
"I mean to have Arya as well. I have men searching."
"Searching is not finding."
"I'll keep that in mind, my lord. In any case, it was Lady Lysa I hoped you might sway. For her, I have a
sweeter offer."
"Lysa is more tractable than Catelyn, true . . . but also more fearful, and I understand she hates you."
"She believes she has good reason. When I was her guest in the Eyrie, she insisted that Id murdered her
husband and was not inclined to listen to denials." He leaned forward. "If I gave her Jon Arryn's true
killer, she might think more kindly of me."
That made Littlefinger sit up. "True killer? I confess, you make me curious. Who do you propose?"
It was Tyrion's turn to smile. "Gifts I give my friends, freely. Lysa Arryn would need to understand that."
"Is it her friendship you require, or her swords?"
"Both."
Littlefinger stroked the neat spike of his beard. "Lysa has woes of her own. Clansmen raiding out of the
Mountains of the Moon, in greater numbers than ever before . . . and better armed."
"Distressing," said Tyrion Lannister, who had armed them. "I could help her with that. A word from me .
. ."


"And what would this word cost her?"
"I want Lady Lysa and her son to acclaim Joffrey as king, to swear fealty, and to make war on the
Starks and Tullys?" Littlefinger shook his head. "There's the roach in your pudding, Lannister. Lysa will
never send her knights against Riverrun."
"Nor would I ask it. We have no lack of enemies. I'll use her power to
oppose Lord Renly, or Lord Stannis, should he stir from Dragonstone. In return, I will give her justice
for Jon Arryn and peace in the Vale. I will even name that appalling child of hers Warden of the East, as
his father was before him." I want to see him fly, a boy's voice whispered faintly in memory. "And to seal
the bargain, I will give her my niece."
He had the pleasure of seeing a look of genuine surprise in Petyr Baelish's grey-green eyes. "Myrcella?"
"When she comes of age, she can wed little Lord Robert. Until such time, she'll be Lady Lysa's ward at
the Eyrie."
"And what does Her Grace the queen think of this ploy?" When Tyrion shrugged, Littlefinger burst into
laughter. "I thought not. You're a dangerous little man, Lannister. Yes, I could sing this song to Lysa."
Again the sly smile, the mischief in his glance. "If I cared to."
Tyrion nodded, waiting, knowing Littlefinger could never abide a long silence.
"So," Lord Petyr continued after a pause, utterly unabashed, "what's in your pot for me?"
"Harrenhal."
It was interesting to watch his face. Lord Petyr's father had been the smallest of small lords, his
grandfather a landless hedge knight; by birth, he held no more than a few stony acres on the windswept
shore of the Fingers. Harrenhal was one of the richest plums in the Seven Kingdoms, its lands broad and
rich and fertile, its great castle as formidable as any in the realm . . . and so large as to dwarf Riverrun,
where Petyr Baelish had been fostered by House Tully, only to be brusquely expelled when he dared
raise his sights to Lord Hoster's daughter.
Littlefinger took a moment to adjust the drape of his cape, but Tyrion had seen the flash of hunger in
those sly cat's eyes. I have him, he knew. "Harrenhal is cursed," Lord Petyr said after a moment, trying to
sound bored.
"Then raze it to the ground and build anew to suit yourself. You'll have no lack of coin. I mean to make
you liege lord of the Trident. These river lords have proven they cannot be trusted. Let them do you
fealty for their lands."
"Even the Tullys?"
"If there are any Tullys left when we are done."
Littlefinger looked like a boy who had just taken a furtive bite from a honeycomb. He was trying to


watch for bees, but the honey was so sweet. "Harrenhal and all its lands and incomes," he mused. "With
a stroke, you'd make me one of the greatest lords in the realm. Not that I'm ungrateful, my lord,
but-why?"
"You served my sister well in the matter of the succession."
"As did Janos Slynt. On whom this same castle of Harrenhal was quite recently bestowed-only to be
snatched away when he was no longer of use."
Tyrion laughed. "You have me, my lord. What can I say? I need you to deliver the Lady Lysa. I did not
need Janos Slynt." He gave a crooked shrug. "I'd sooner have you seated in Harrenhal than Renly seated
on the Iron Throne. What could be plainer?"
"What indeed. You realize that I may need to bed Lysa Arryn again to get her consent to this marriage?"
"I have little doubt you'll be equal to the task."
"I once told Ned Stark that when you find yourself naked with an ugly woman, the only thing to do is
close your eyes and get on with it." Littlefinger steepled his fingers and gazed into Tyrion's mismatched
eyes. "Give me a fortnight to conclude my affairs and arrange for a ship to carry me to Gulltown."
"That will do nicely."
His guest rose. "This has been quite the pleasant morning, Lannister. And profitable . . . for both of us, I
trust." He bowed, his cape a swirl of yellow as he strode out the door.
7Wo, thought Tyrion.
He went up to his bedchamber to await Varys, who would soon be making an appearance. Evenfall, he
guessed. Perhaps as late as moonrise, though he hoped not. He hoped to visit Shae tonight. He was
pleasantly surprised when Galt of the Stone Crows informed him not an hour later that the powdered
man was at his door. "You are a cruel man, to make the Grand Maester squirm so," the eunuch scolded.
"The man cannot abide a secret."
"Is that a crow I hear, calling the raven black? Or would you sooner not hear what I've proposed to
Doran Martell?"
Varys giggled. "Perhaps my little birds have told me."
"Have they, indeed?" He wanted to hear this. "Go on."
"The Dornishmen thus far have held aloof from these wars. Doran Martell has called his banners, but no
more. His hatred for House Lannister is well known, and it is commonly thought he will join Lord Renly.
You wish to dissuade him."
"All this is obvious," said Tyrion.
"The only puzzle is what you might have offered for his allegiance. The prince is a sentimental man, and
he still mourns his sister Elia and her sweet babe."
"My father once told me that a lord never lets sentiment get in the way of ambition . . . and it happens we


have an empty seat on the small council, now that Lord Janos has taken the black."
"A council seat is not to be despised," Varys admitted, "yet will it be enough to make a proud man forget
his sister's murder?"
"Why forget?" Tyrion smiled. "I've promised to deliver his sister's killers, alive or dead, as he prefers.
After the war is done, to be sure."
Varys gave him a shrewd look. "My little birds tell me that Princess Elia cried a . . . certain name . . .
when they came for her."
"Is a secret still a secret if everyone knows it?" In Casterly Rock, it was common knowledge that Gregor
Clegane had killed Elia and her babe. They said he had raped the princess with her son's blood and
brains still on his hands.
"This secret is your lord father's sworn man."
"My father would be the first to tell you that fifty thousand Dornishmen are worth one rabid dog."
Varys stroked a powdered cheek. "And if Prince Doran demands the blood of the lord who gave the
command as well as the knight who did the deed . . ."
"Robert Baratheon led the rebellion. All commands came from him, in the end."
"Robert was not at King's Landing."
"Neither was Doran Martell."
"So. Blood for his pride, a chair for his ambition. Gold and land, that goes without saying. A sweet offer
. . . yet sweets can be poisoned. If I were the prince, something more would I require before I should
reach for this honeycomb. Some token of good faith, some sure safeguard against betrayal." Varys
smiled his slimiest smile. "Which one will you give him, I wonder?"
Tyrion sighed. "You know, don't you?"
"Since you put it that way-yes. Tommen. You could scarcely offer Myrcella to Doran Martell and Lysa
Arryn both."
"Remind me never to play these guessing games with you again. You cheat. "
"Prince Tornmen is a good boy."
"If I pry him away from Cersei and Joffrey while he's still young, he may even grow to be a good man."
"And a good king?"
"Joffrey is king."
"And Tornmen is heir, should anything ill befall His Grace. Tommen, whose nature is so sweet, and
notably . . . tractable."


"You have a suspicious mind, Varys."
"I shall take that as a tribute, my lord. In any case, Prince Doran will hardly be insensible of the great
honor you do him. Very deftly done, I would say . . . but for one small flaw."
The dwarf laughed. "Named Cersei?"
"What avails statecraft against the love of a mother for the sweet fruit of her womb? Perhaps, for the
glory of her House and the safety of the realm, the queen might be persuaded to send away Tornmen or
Myrcella. But both of them? Surely not."
"What Cersei does not know will never hurt me."
"And if Her Grace were to discover your intentions before your plans are ripe?"
"Why," he said, "then I would know the man who told her to be my certain enemy." And when Varys
giggled, he thought, Three.
CHAPTER 18
SANSA
Come to the godswood tonight, if you want to go home.
The words were the same on the hundredth reading as they'd been on the first, when Sansa had
discovered the folded sheet of parchment beneath her pillow. She did not know how it had gotten there
or who had sent it. The note was unsigned, unsealed, and the hand unfamiliar. She crushed the parchment
to her chest and whispered the words to herself. "Come to the godswood tonight, if you want to go
home," she breathed, ever so faintly.
What could it mean? Should she take it to the queen to prove that she was being good? Nervously, she
rubbed her stomach. The angry purple bruise Ser Meryn had given her had faded to an ugly yellow, but
still hurt. His fist had been mailed when he hit her. It was her own fault. She must learn to hide her feelings
better, so as not to anger Joffrey. When she heard that the imp had sent Lord Slynt to the Wall, she had
forgotten herself and said, "I hope the Others get him." The king had not been pleased.
Come to the godswood tonight, if you want to go home.
Sansa had prayed so hard. Could this be her answer at last, a true knight sent to save her? Perhaps it
was one of the Redwyne twins, or bold Ser Balon Swann . . . or even Beric Dondarrion, the young lord
her friend jeyne Poole had loved, with his red-gold hair and the spray of stars on his black cloak.
Come to the godswood tonight, if you want to go home.
What if it was some cruel jape of Joffrey's, like the day he had taken her up to the battlements to show
her Father's head? Or perhaps it was some subtle snare to prove she was not loyal. If she went to the
godswood, would she find Ser Ilyn Payne waiting for her, sitting silent under the heart tree with Ice in his


hand, his pale eyes watching to see if she'd come?
Come to the godswood tonight, if you want to go home.
When the door opened, she hurriedly stuffed the note under her sheet and sat on it. It was her bedmaid,
the mousy one with the limp brown hair. "What do you want?" Sansa demanded.
"Will milady be wanting a bath tonight?"
"A fire, I think . . . I feel a chill." She was shivering, though the day had been hot.
"As you wish."
Sansa watched the girl suspiciously. Had she seen the note? Had she put it under the pillow? It did not
seem likely; she seemed a stupid girl, not one you'd want delivering secret notes, but Sansa did not know
her. The queen had her servants changed every fortnight, to make certain none of them befriended her.
When a fire was blazing in the hearth, Sansa thanked the maid curtly and ordered her out. The girl was
quick to obey, as ever, but Sansa decided there was something sly about her eyes. Doubtless, she was
scurrying off to report to the queen, or maybe Varys. All her maids spied on her, she was certain.
Once alone, she thrust the note in the flames, watching the parchment curl and blacken. Come to the
godswood tonight, if you want to go home. She drifted to her window. Below, she could see a short
knight in moon-pale armor and a heavy white cloak pacing the drawbridge. From his height, it could only
be Ser Preston Greenfield. The queen had given her freedom of the castle, but even so, he would want to
know where she was going if she tried to leave Maegor's Holdfast at this time of night. What was she to
tell him? Suddenly she was glad she had burned the note.
She unlaced her gown and crawled into her bed, but she did not sleep. Was he still there? she
wondered. How long will he wait? It was so cruel, to send her a note and tell her nothing. The thoughts
went round and round in her head.
if only she had someone to tell her what to do. She missed Septa Mordane, and even more jeyne Poole,
her truest friend. The septa had lost her head with the rest, for the crime of serving House Stark. Sansa
did not know what had happened to jeyne, who had disappeared from her rooms afterward, never to be
mentioned again. She tried not to think of them too often, yet sometimes the memories came unbidden,
and then it
was hard to hold back the tears. Once in a while, Sansa even missed her sister. By now Arya was safe
back in Winterfell, dancing and sewing, playing with Bran and baby Rickon, even riding through the
winter town if she liked. Sansa was allowed to go riding too, but only in the bailey, and it got boring going
round in a circle all day.
She was wide awake when she heard the shouting. Distant at first, then growing louder. Many voices
yelling together. She could not make out the words. And there were horses as well, and pounding feet,
shouts of command. She crept to her window and saw men running on the walls, carrying spears and
torches. Go back to your bed, Sansa told herself, this is nothing that concerns you, just some new trouble
out in the city. The talk at the wells had all been of troubles in the city of late. People were crowding in,
running from the war, and many had no way to live save by robbing and killing each other. Go to bed.
But when she looked, the white knight was gone, the bridge across the dry moat down but undefended.


Sansa turned away without thinking and ran to her wardrobe. oh, what am I doing? she asked herself as
she dressed. This is madness. She could see the lights of many torches on the curtain walls. Had Stannis
and Renly come at last to kill Joffrey and claim their brother's throne? If so, the guards would raise the
drawbridge, cutting off Maegor's Holdfast from the outer castle. Sansa threw a plain grey cloak over her
shoulders and picked up the knife she used to cut her meat. ff it is some trap, better that I die than let
them hurt me more, she told herself. She hid the blade under her cloak.
A column of red-cloaked swordsmen ran past as she slipped out into the night. She waited until they
were well past before she darted across the undefended drawbridge. In the yard, men were buckling on
swordbelts and cinching the saddles of their horses. She glimpsed Ser Preston near the stables with three
others of the Kingsguard, white cloaks bright as the moon as they helped Joffrey into his armor. Her
breath caught in her throat when she saw the king. Thankfully, he did not see her. He was shouting for his
sword and crossbow.
The noise receded as she moved deeper into the castle, never daring to look back for fear that Joffrey
might be watching . . . or worse, following. The serpentine steps twisted ahead, striped by bars of
flickering light from the narrow windows above. Sansa was panting by the time she reached the top. She
ran down a shadowy colonnade and pressed herself against a wall to catch her breath. When something
brushed against her leg, she almost jumped out of her skin, but it was only a cat, a ragged black tom with
a chewed-off ear. The creature spit at her and leapt away.
By the time she reached the godswood, the noises had faded to a faint rattle of steel and a distant
shouting. Sansa pulled her cloak tighter. The
air was rich with the smells of earth and leaf. Lady would have liked this place, she thought. There was
something wild about a godswood; even here, in the heart of the castle at the heart of the city, you could
feel the old gods watching with a thousand unseen eyes.
Sansa had favored her mother's gods over her father's. She loved the statues, the pictures in leaded
glass, the fragrance of burning incense, the septons with their robes and crystals, the magical play of the
rainbows over altars inlaid with mother-of-pearl and onyx and lapis lazuli. Yet she could not deny that the
godswood had a certain power too. Especially by night. Help me, she prayed, send me a friend, a true
knight to champion me . . .
She moved from tree to tree, feeling the roughness of the bark beneath her fingers. Leaves brushed at
her cheeks. Had she come too late? He would not have left so soon, would he? Or had he even been
here? Dare she risk calling out? It seemed so hushed and still here . . .
"I feared you would not come, child."
Sansa whirled. A man stepped out of the shadows, heavyset, thick of neck, shambling. He wore a dark
grey robe with the cowl pulled forward, but when a thin sliver of moonlight touched his cheek, she knew
him at once by the blotchy skin and web of broken veins beneath. "Ser Dontos," she breathed,
heartbroken. "Was it you?"
"Yes, my lady." When he moved closer, she could smell the sour stench of wine on his breath. "Me." He
reached out a hand.
Sansa shrank back. "Don't!" She slid her hand under her cloak, to her hidden knife. "What . . . what do
you want with me?"


"Only to help you," Dontos said, "as you helped me."
"You're drunk, aren't you?"
"Only one cup of wine, to help my courage. If they catch me now, they'll strip the skin off my back."
And what will they do to me? Sansa found herself thinking of Lady again. She could smell out falsehood,
she could, but she was dead, Father had killed her, on account of Arya. She drew the knife and held it
before her with both hands.
"Are you going to stab me?" Dontos asked.
"I will," she said. "Tell me who sent you."
"No one, sweet lady. I swear it on my honor as a knight."
"A knight?" Joffrey had decreed that he was to be a knight no longer, only a fool, lower even than Moon
Boy. "I prayed to the gods for a knight to come save me," she said. "I prayed and prayed. Why would
they send me a drunken old fool?"
"I deserve that, though . . . I know it's queer, but . . . all those years I was a knight, I was truly a fool,
and now that I am a fool I think . . . I think I may find it in me to be a knight again, sweet lady.
And all because of you . . . your grace, your courage. You saved me, not only from Joffrey, but from
myself." His voice dropped. "The singers say there was another fool once who was the greatest knight of
all
"Florian," Sansa whispered. A shiver went through her.
"Sweet lady, I would be your Florian," Dontos said humbly, falling to his knees before her.
Slowly, Sansa lowered the knife. Her head seemed terribly light, as if she were floating. This is madness,
to trust myself to this drunkard, but if I turn away will the chance ever come again? "How . . . how would
you do it? Get me away?"
Ser Dontos raised his face to her. "Taking you from the castle, that will be the hardest. Once you're out,
there are ships that would take you home. I'd need to find the coin and make the arrangements, that's all."
"Could we go now?" she asked, hardly daring to hope.
"This very night? No, my lady, I fear not. First I must find a sure way to get you from the castle when the
hour is ripe. it will not be easy, nor quick. They watch me as well." He licked his lips nervously. "Will you
put away your blade?"
Sansa slipped the knife beneath her cloak. "Rise, ser."
"Thank you, sweet lady." Ser Dontos lurched clumsily to his feet, and brushed earth and leaves from his
knees. "Your lord father was as true a man as the realm has ever known, but I stood by and let them slay
him. I said nothing, did nothing . . . and yet, when Joffrey would have slain me, you spoke up. Lady, I
have never been a hero, no Ryam Redwyne or Barristan the Bold. I've won no tourneys, no renown in


war . . . but I was a knight once, and you have helped me remember what that meant. My life is a poor
thing, but it is yours." Ser Dontos placed a hand on the gnarled bole of the heart tree. He was shaking,
she saw. "I vow, with your father's gods as witness, that I shall send you home."
He swore. A solemn oath, before the gods. "Then . . . I will put myself in your hands, ser. But how will I
know, when it is time to go? Will you send me another note?"
Ser Dontos glanced about anxiously. "The risk is too great. You must come here, to the godswood. As
often as you can. This is the safest place. The only safe place. Nowhere else. Not in your chambers nor
mine nor on the steps nor in the yard, even if it seems we are alone. The stones have ears in the Red
Keep, and only here may we talk freely."
"Only here," Sansa said. "I'll remember."
"And if I should seem cruel or mocking or indifferent when men are watching, forgive me, child. I have a
role to play, and you must do the same. One misstep and our heads will adorn the walls as did your
father's."
She nodded. "I understand."
"You will need to be brave and strong . . . and patient, patient above all."
"I will be," she promised, "but . . . please . . . make it as soon as you can. I'm afraid . . ."
"So am I," Ser Dontos said, smiling wanly. "And now you must go, before you are missed."
"You will not come with me?"
"Better if we are never seen together."
Nodding, Sansa took a step . . . then spun back, nervous, and softly laid a kiss on his cheek, her eyes
closed. "My Florian," she whispered. "The gods heard my prayer."
She flew along the river walk, past the small kitchen, and through the pig yard, her hurried footsteps lost
beneath the squealing of the hogs in their pens. Home, she thought, home, he is going to take me home,
he'll keep me safe, my Florian. The songs about Florian and Jonquil were her very favorites. Florian was
homely too, though not so old.
She was racing headlong down the serpentine steps when a man lurched out of a hidden doorway.
Sansa caromed into him and lost her balance. Iron fingers caught her by the wrist before she could fall,
and a deep voice rasped at her. "It's a long roll down the serpentine, little bird. Want to kill us both?" His
laughter was rough as a saw on stone. "Maybe you do."
The Hound. "No, my lord, pardons, I'd never." Sansa averted her eyes but it was too late, he'd seen her
face. "Please, you're hurting me." She tried to wriggle free.
"And what's Joff's little bird doing flying down the serpentine in the black of night?" When she did not
answer, he shook her. "Where were you? "
"The g-g-godswood, my lord," she said, not daring to lie. "Praying . . . praying for my father, and . . . for
the king, praying that he'd not be hurt."


"Think I'm so drunk that Id believe that?" He let go his grip on her arm, swaying slightly as he stood,
stripes of light and darkness falling across his terrible burnt face. "You look almost a woman . . . face,
teats, and you're taller too, almost . . . ah, you're still a stupid little bird, aren't you? Singing all the songs
they taught you . . . sing me a song, why don't you? Go on. Sing to me. Some song about knights and fair
maids. You like knights, don't you?"
He was scaring her. "T-true knights, my lord."
"True knights," he mocked. "And I'm no lord, no more than I'm a knight. Do I need to beat that into
you?" Clegane reeled and almost fell. "Gods," he swore, "too much wine. Do you like wine, little bird?
Rue wine? A flagon of sour red, dark as blood, all a man needs. Or a woman."
He laughed, shook his head. "Drunk as a dog, damn me. You come now. Back to your cage, little bird.
I'll take you there. Keep you safe for the king." The Hound gave her a push, oddly gentle, and followed
her down the steps. By the time they reached the bottom, he had lapsed back into a brooding silence, as
if he had forgotten she was there.
When they reached Maegor's Holdfast, she was alarmed to see that it was Ser Boros Blount who now
held the bridge. His high white helm turned stiffly at the sound of their footsteps. Sansa flinched away
from his gaze. Ser Boros was the worst of the Kingsguard, an ugly man with a foul temper, all scowls and
jowls.
"That one is nothing to fear, girl." The Hound laid a heavy hand on her shoulder. "Paint stripes on a toad,
he does not become a tiger."
Ser Boros lifted his visor. "Ser, where-"
"Fuck your ser, Boros. You're the knight, not me. I'm the king's dog, remember? "
"The king was looking for his dog earlier."
"The dog was drinking. It was your night to shield him, ser. You and my other brothers."
Ser Boros turned to Sansa. "How is it you are not in your chambers at this hour, lady?"
"I went to the godswood to pray for the safety of the king." The lie sounded better this time, almost true.
"You expect her to sleep with all the noise?" Clegane said. "What was the trouble? "
"Fools at the gate," Ser Boros admitted. "Some loose tongues spread tales of the preparations for
Tyrek's wedding feast, and these wretches got it in their heads they should be feasted too. His Grace led
a sortie and sent them scurrying."
"A brave boy," Clegane said, mouth twitching.
Let us see how brave he is when he faces my brother, Sansa thought. The Hound escorted her across
the drawbridge. As they were winding their way up the steps, she said, "Why do you let people call you
a dog? You won't let anyone call you a knight."
"I like dogs better than knights. My father's father was kennelmaster at the Rock. One autumn year,


Lord Tytos came between a lioness and her prey. The lioness didn't give a shit that she was Lannister's
own sigil. Bitch tore into my lord's horse and would have done for my lord too, but my grandfather came
up with the hounds. Three of his dogs died running her off. My grandfather lost a leg, so Lannister paid
him for it with lands and a towerhouse, and took his son to squire. The three dogs on our banner are the
three that died, in the yellow of autumn grass. A hound will die for you, but never lie to you. And he'll
look you straight in the face." He cupped her under the jaw, raising her chin, his fingers pinching
her painfully. "And that's more than little birds can do, isn't it? I never got my song."
"I . . . I know a song about Florian and Jonquil."
"Florian and Jonquil? A fool and his cunt. Spare me. But one day I'll have a song from you, whether you
will it or no."
"I will sing it for you gladly."
Sandor Clegane snorted. "Pretty thing, and such a bad liar. A dog can smell a lie, you know. Look
around you, and take a good whiff. They're all liars here . . . and every one better than you."
CHAPTER 19
ARYA
When she climbed all the way up to the highest branch, Arya could see chimneys poking through the
trees. Thatched roofs clustered along the shore of the lake and the small stream that emptied into it, and a
wooden pier jutted out into the water beside a low long building with a slate roof.
She skinnied farther out, until the branch began to sag under her weight. No boats were tied to the pier,
but she could see thin tendrils of smoke rising from some of the chimneys, and part of a wagon jutting out
behind a stable.
Someone's there. Arya chewed her lip. All the other places they'd come upon had been empty and
desolate. Farms, villages, castles, septs, barns, it made no matter. if it could burn, the Lannisters had
burned it; if it could die, they'd killed it. They had even set the woods ablaze where they could, though
the leaves were still green and wet from recent rains, and the fires had not spread. "They would have
burned the lake if they could have," Gendry had said, and Arya knew he was right. on the night of their
escape, the flames of the burning town had shimmered so brightly on the water that it had seemed that the
lake was afire.
When they finally summoned the nerve to steal back into the ruins the next night, nothing remained but
blackened stones, the hollow shells of houses, and corpses. In some places wisps of pale smoke still rose
from the ashes. Hot Pie had pleaded with them not to go back, and Lommy called them fools and swore
that Ser Amory would catch them and kill
them too, but Lorch and his men had long gone by the time they reached the holdfast. They found the
gates broken down, the walls partly demolished, and the inside strewn with the unburied dead. One look
was enough for Gendry. "They're killed, every one," he said. "And dogs have been at them too, look."


"Or wolves."
"Dogs, wolves, it makes no matter. It's done here."
But Arya would not leave until they found Yoren. They couldn't have killed him, she told herself, he was
too hard and tough, and a brother of the Night's Watch besides. She said as much to Gendry as they
searched among the corpses.
The axe blow that had killed him had split his skull apart, but the great tangled beard could be no one
else's, or the garb, patched and unwashed and so faded it was more grey than black. Ser Amory Lorch
had given no more thought to burying his own dead than to those he had murdered, and the corpses of
four Lannister men-at-arms were heaped near Yoren's. Arya wondered how many it had taken to bring
him down.
He was going to take me home, she thought as they dug the old man's hole. There were too many dead
to bury them all, but Yoren at least must have a grave, Arya had insisted. He was going to bring me safe
to Winterfell, he promised. Part of her wanted to cry. The other part wanted to kick him.
It was Gendry who thought of the lord's towerhouse and the three that Yoren had sent to hold it. They
had come under attack as well, but the round tower had only one entry, a second-story door reached by
a ladder. Once that had been pulled inside, Ser Amory's men could not get at them. The Lannisters had
piled brush around the tower's base and set it afire, but the stone would not burn, and Lorch did not have
the patience to starve them out. Cutiack opened the door at Gendry's shout, and when Kurz said they'd
be better pressing on north than going back, Arya had clung to the hope that she still might reach
Winterfell.
Well, this village was no Winterfell, but those thatched roofs promised warmth and shelter and maybe
even food, if they were bold enough to risk them. Unless it's Lorch there. He had horses; he would have
traveled faster than us.
She watched from the tree for a long time, hoping she might see something; a man, a horse, a banner,
anything that would help her know. A few times she glimpsed motion, but the buildings were so far off it
was hard to be certain. Once, very clearly, she heard the whinny of a horse.
The air was full of birds, crows mostly. From afar, they were no larger than flies as they wheeled and
flapped above the thatched roofs. To the east, Gods Eye was a sheet of sun-hammered blue that filled
half the
world. Some days, as they made their slow way up the muddy shore (Gendry wanted no part of any
roads, and even Hot Pie and Lommy saw the sense in that), Arya felt as though the lake were calling her.
She wanted to leap into those placid blue waters, to feel clean again, to swim and splash and bask in the
sun. But she dare not take off her clothes where the others could see, not even to wash them. At the end
of the day she would often sit on a rock and dangle her feet in the cool water. She had finally thrown
away her cracked and rotted shoes. Walking barefoot was hard at first, but the blisters had finally
broken, the cuts had healed, and her soles had turned to leather. The mud was nice between her toes,
and she liked to feel the earth underfoot when she walked.
From up here, she could see a small wooded island off to the northeast. Thirty yards from shore, three
black swans were gliding over the water, so serene . . . no one had told them that war had come, and
they cared nothing for burning towns and butchered men. She stared at them with yearning. Part of her


wanted to be a swan. The other part wanted to eat one. She had broken her fast on some acorn paste
and a handful of bugs. Bugs weren't so bad when you got used to them. Worms were worse, but still not
as bad as the pain in your belly after days without food. Finding bugs was easy, all you had to do was
kick over a rock. Arya had eaten a bug once when she was little, just to make Sansa screech, so she
hadn't been afraid to eat another. Weasel wasn't either, but Hot Pie retched up the beetle he tried to
swallow, and Lommy and Gendry wouldn't even try. Yesterday Gendry had caught a frog and shared it
with Lommy, and, a few days before, Hot Pie had found blackberries and stripped the bush bare, but
mostly they had been living on water and acorns. Kurz had told them how to use rocks and make a kind
of acorn paste. it tasted awful.
She wished the poacher hadn't died. He'd known more about the woods than all the rest of them
together, but he'd taken an arrow through the shoulder pulling in the ladder at the towerhouse. Tarber
had packed it with mud and moss from the lake, and for a day or two Kurz swore the wound was
nothing, even though the flesh of his throat was turning dark while angry red welts crept up his jaw and
down his chest. Then one morning he couldn't find the strength to get up, and by the next he was dead.
They buried him under a mound of stones, and Cutjack had claimed his sword and hunting horn, while
Tarber helped himself to bow and boots and knife. They'd taken it all when they left. At first they thought
the two had just gone hunting, that they'd soon return with game and feed them all. But they waited and
waited, until finally Gendry made them move on. Maybe Tarber and Cutjack figured they would stand a
better chance without a gaggle of orphan boys to herd along. They probably would too, but that didn't
stop her hating them for leaving.
Beneath her tree, Hot Pie barked like a dog. Kurz had told them to use animal sounds to signal to each
other. An old poacher's trick, he'd said, but he'd died before he could teach them how to make the
sounds right. Hot Pie's bird calls were awful. His dog was better, but not much.
Arya hopped from the high branch to one beneath it, her hands out for balance. A water dancer never
falls. Lightfoot, her toes curled tight around the branch, she walked a few feet, hopped down to a larger
limb, then swung hand over hand through the tangle of leaves until she reached the trunk. The bark was
rough beneath her fingers, against her toes. She descended quickly, jumping down the final six feet,
rolling when she landed.
Gendry gave her a hand to pull her up. "You were up there a long time. What could you see?"
"A fishing village, just a little place, north along the shore. Twenty-six thatch roofs and one slate, I
counted. I saw part of a wagon. Someone's there."
At the sound of her voice, Weasel came creeping out from the bushes. Lommy had named her that. He
said she looked like a weasel, which wasn't true, but they couldn't keep on calling her the crying girl after
she finally stopped crying. Her mouth was filthy. Arya hoped she hadn't been eating mud again.
"Did you see people?" asked Gendry.
"Mostly just roofs," Arya admitted, "but some chimneys were smoking, and I heard a horse." The
Weasel put her arms around her leg, clutching tight. Sometimes she did that now.
"If there's people, there's food," Hot Pie said, too loudly. Gendry was always telling him to be more
quiet, but it never did any good. "Might be they'd give us some."


"Might be they'd kill us too," Gendry said.
"Not if we yielded," Hot Pie said hopefully.
"Now you sound like Lommy."
Lommy Greenhands sat propped up between two thick roots at the foot of an oak. A spear had taken
him through his left calf during the fight at the holdfast. By the end of the next day, he had to limp along
one-legged with an arm around Gendry, and now he couldn't even do that. They'd hacked branches off
trees to make a litter for him, but it was slow, hard work carrying him along, and he whimpered every
time they jounced him.
"We have to yield," he said. "That's what Yoren should have done. He should have opened the gates like
they said."
Arya was sick of Lommy going on about how Yoren should have yielded. It was all he talked about
when they carried him, that and his leg and his empty belly.
Hot Pie agreed. "They told Yoren to open the gates, they told him in the king's name. You have to do
what they tell you in the king's name. It was that stinky old man's fault. If he'd of yielded, they would have
left us be."
Gendry frowned. "Knights and lordlings, they take each other captive and pay ransoms, but they don't
care if the likes of you yield or not." He turned to Arya. "What else did you see?"
"If it's a fishing village, they'd sell us fish, I bet," said Hot Pie. The lake teemed with fresh fish, but they
had nothing to catch them with. Arya had tried to use her hands, the way she'd seen Koss do, but fish
were quicker than pigeons and the water played tricks on her eyes.
"I don't know about fish." Arya tugged at the Weasel's matted hair, thinking it might be best to hack it
off. "There's crows down by the water. Something's dead there."
"Fish, washed up on shore," Hot Pie said. "If the crows eat it, I bet we could."
"We should catch some crows, we could eat them," said Lommy. "We could make a fire and roast them
like chickens."
Gendry looked fierce when he scowled. His beard had grown in thick and black as briar. "I said, no
fires."
"Lommy's hungry," Hot Pie whined, "and I am too."
"We're all hungry," said Arya.
"You're not," Lommy spat from the ground. "Worm breath."
Arya could have kicked him in his wound. "I said I'd dig worms for you too, if you wanted."
Lommy made a disgusted face. "If it wasn't for my leg, Id hunt us some boars."
"Some boars," she mocked. "You need a boarspear to hunt boars, and horses and dogs, and men to


flush the boar from its lair." Her father had hunted boar in the wolfswood with Robb and Jon. Once he
even took Bran, but never Arya, even though she was older. Septa Mordane said boar hunting was not
for ladies, and Mother only promised that when she was older she might have her own hawk. She was
older now, but if she had a hawk she'd eat it.
"What do you know about hunting boars?" said Hot Pie.
"More than you."
Gendry was in no mood to hear it. "Quiet, both of you, I need to think what to do." He always looked
pained when he tried to think, like it hurt him something fierce.
"Yield," Lommy said.
"I told you to shut up about the yielding. We don't even know who's in there. Maybe we can steal some
food."
"Lommy could steal, if it wasn't for his leg," said Hot Pie. "He was a thief in the city."
"A bad thief," Arya said, "or he wouldn't have got caught."
Gendry squinted up at the sun. "Evenfall will be the best time to sneak in. I'll go scout come dark."
"No, I'll go," Arya said. "You're too noisy."
Gendry got that look on his face. "We'll both go."
"Arry should go," said Lommy. "He's sneakier than you are."
"We'll both go, I said."
"But what if you don't come back? Hot Pie can't carry me by himself, you know he can't . . ."
"And there's wolves," Hot Pie said. "I heard them last night, when I had the watch. They sounded close."
Arya had heard them too. She'd been asleep in the branches of an elm, but the howling had woken her.
She'd sat awake for a good hour, listening to them, prickles creeping up her spine.
"And you won't even let us have a fire to keep them off," Hot Pie said. "It's not right, leaving us for the
wolves."
"No one is leaving you," Gendry said in disgust. "Lommy has his spear if the wolves come, and you'll be
with him. We're just going to go see, that's all; we're coming back."
"Whoever it is, you should yield to them," Lommy whined. "I need some potion for my leg, it hurts bad."
"If we see any leg potion, we'll bring it," Gendry said. "Arry, let's go, I want to get near before the sun is
down. Hot Pie, you keep Weasel here, I don't want her following."
"Last time she kicked me."


"I'll kick you if you don't keep her here." Without waiting for an answer, Gendry donned his steel helm
and walked off.
Arya had to scamper to keep up. Gendry was five years older and a foot taller than she was, and long of
leg as well. For a while he said nothing, just plowed on through the trees with an angry look on his face,
making too much noise. But finally he stopped and said, "I think Lommy's going to die."
She was not surprised. Kurz had died of his wound, and he'd been a lot stronger than Lommy.
Whenever it was Arya's turn to help carry him, she could feel how warm his skin was, and smell the stink
off his leg. "Maybe we could find a maester . . ."
"You only find maesters in castles, and even if we found one, he
wouldn't dirty his hands on the likes of Lommy." Gendry ducked under a low-hanging limb.
"That's not true." Maester Luwin would have helped anyone who came to him, she was certain.
"He's going to die, and the sooner he does it, the better for the rest of us. We should just leave him, like
he says. If it was you or me hurt, you know he'd leave us." They scrambled down a steep cut and up the
other side, using roots for handholds. "I'm sick of carrying him, and I'm sick of all his talk about yielding
too. If he could stand up, I'd knock his teeth in. Lommy's no use to anyone. That crying girl's no use
either."
"You leave Weasel alone, she's just scared and hungry is all." Arya glanced back, but the girl was not
following for once. Hot Pie must have grabbed her, like Gendry had told him.
"She's no use," Gendry repeated stubbornly. "Her and Hot Pie and Lommy, they're slowing us down,
and they're going to get us killed. You're the only one of the bunch who's good for anything. Even if you
are a girl."
Arya froze in her steps. "I'm not a girl!"
"Yes you are. Do you think I'm as stupid as they are?"
"No, you're stupider. The Night's Watch doesn't take girls, everyone knows that."
"That's true. I don't know why Yoren brought you, but he must have had some reason. You're still a
girl."
"I am not!"
"Then pull out your cock and take a piss. Go on."
"I don't need to take a piss. If I wanted to I could."
"Liar. You can't take out your cock because you don't have one. I never noticed before when there
were thirty of us, but you always go off in the woods to make your water. You don't see Hot Pie doing
that, nor me neither. If you're not a girl, you must be some eunuch."
"You're the eunuch."


"You know I'm not." Gendry smiled. "You want me to take out my cock and prove it? I don't have
anything to hide."
"Yes you do," Arya blurted, desperate to escape the subject of the cock she didn't have. "Those gold
cloaks were after you at the inn, and you won't tell us why."
"I wish I knew. I think Yoren knew, but he never told me. Why did you think they were after you,
though?"
Arya bit her lip. She remembered what Yoren had said, the day he had hacked off her hair. This lot, half
o' them would turn you over to the queen quick as spit for a pardon and maybe a few silvers. The other
half'd do the same, only they'd rape you first. Only Gendry was different,
the queen wanted him too. "I'll tell you if you'll tell me," she said warily.
"I would if I knew, Arry . . . is that really what you're called, or do you have some girl's name?"
Arya glared at the gnarled root by her feet. She realized that the pretense was done. Gendry knew, and
she had nothing in her pants to convince him otherwise. She could draw Needle and kill him where he
stood, or else trust him. She wasn't certain she'd be able to kill him, even if she tried; he had his own
sword, and he was a lot stronger. All that was left was the truth. "Lommy and Hot Pie can't know," she
said.
"They won't," he swore. "Not from me."
"Arya." She raised her eyes to his. "My name is Arya. Of House Stark."
"Of House It took him a moment before he said, "The King's
Hand was named Stark. The one they killed for a traitor."
"He was never a traitor. He was my father."
Gendry's eyes widened. "So that's why you thought
She nodded. "Yoren was taking me home to Winterfell."
"I . . . you're highborn then, a . . . you'll be a lady . . ."
Arya looked down at her ragged clothes and bare feet, all cracked and callused. She saw the dirt under
her nails, the scabs on her elbows, the scratches on her hands. Septa Mordane wouldn't even know me,
I bet. Sansa might, but she'd pretend not to. "My mother's a lady, and my sister, but I never was."
"Yes you were. You were a lord's daughter and you lived in a castle, didn't you? And you . . . gods be
good, I never . . ." All of a sudden Gendry seemed uncertain, almost afraid. "All that about cocks, I never
should have said that. And I been pissing in front of you and everything, I I beg your pardon, m'lady."
"Stop that!" Arya hissed. Was he mocking her?
"I know my courtesies, m'lady," Gendry said, stubborn as ever. "Whenever highborn girls came into the
shop with their fathers, my mastcr told me I was to bend the knee, and speak only when they spoke to


me, and call them m'lady."
"If you start calling me m'lady, even Hot Pie is going to notice. And you better keep on pissing the same
way too."
"As m'lady commands."
Arya slammed his chest with both hands. He tripped over a stone and sat down with a thump. "What
kind of lord's daughter are you?" he said, laughing.
"This kind." She kicked him in the side, but it only made him laugh harder. "You laugh all you like. I'm
going to see who's in the village." The sun had already fallen below the trees; dusk would be on them in
no
time at all. For once it was Gendry who had to hurry after. "You smell that?" she asked.
He sniffed the air. "Rotten fish?"
"You know it's not."
"We better be careful. I'll go around west, see if there's some road. There must be if you saw a wagon.
You take the shore. If you need help, bark like a dog."
"That's stupid. If I need help, I'll shout help." She darted away, bare feet silent in the grass. When she
glanced back over her shoulder, he was watching her with that pained look on his face that meant he was
thinking. He's probably thinking that he shouldn't be letting m'lady go stealing food. Arya just knew he
was going to be stupid now.
The smell grew stronger as she got closer to the village. It did not smell like rotten fish to her. This stench
was ranker, fouler. She wrinkled her nose.
Where the trees began to thin, she used the undergrowth, slipping from bush to bush quiet as a shadow.
Every few yards she stopped to listen. The third time, she heard horses, and a man's voice as well. And
the smell got worse. Dead man's stink, that's what it is. She had smelled it before, with Yoren and the
others.
A dense thicket of brambles grew south of the village. By the time she reached it, the long shadows of
sunset had begun to fade, and the lantern bugs were coming out. She could see thatched roofs just
beyond the hedge. She crept along until she found a gap and squirmed through on her belly, keeping well
hidden until she saw what made the smell.
Beside the gently lapping waters of Gods Eye, a long gibbet of raw green wood had been thrown up,
and things that had once been men dangled there, their feet in chains, while crows pecked at their flesh
and flapped from corpse to corpse. For every crow there were a hundred flies. When the wind blew off
the lake, the nearest corpse twisted on its chain, ever so slightly. The crows had eaten most of its face,
and something else had been at it as well, something much larger. Throat and chest had been torn apart,
and glistening green entrails and ribbons of ragged flesh dangled from where the belly had been opened.
one arm had been ripped right off the shoulder; Arya saw the bones a few feet away, gnawed and
cracked, picked clean of meat.
She made herself look at the next man and the one beyond him and the one beyond him, telling herself


she was hard as a stone. Corpses all, so savaged and decayed that it took her a moment to realize they
had been stripped before they were hanged. They did not look like naked people; they hardly looked
like people at all. The crows had eaten their eyes, and sometimes their faces. Of the sixth in the long row,
nothing
remained but a single leg, still tangled in its chains, swaying with each breeze.
Fear cuts deeper than swords. Dead men could not hurt her, but whoever had killed them could. Well
beyond the gibbet, two men in mail hauberks stood leaning on their spears in front of the long low
building by the water, the one with the slate roof. A pair of tall poles had been driven into the muddy
ground in front of it, banners drooping from each staff. One looked red and one paler, white or yellow
maybe, but both were limp and with the dusk settling, she could not even be certain that red one was
Lannister crimson. I don't need to see the lion, I can see all the dead people, who else would it be but
Lannisters?
Then there was a shout.
The two spearmen turned at the cry, and a third man came into view, shoving a captive before him. It
was growing too dark to make out faces, but the prisoner was wearing a shiny steel helm, and when
Arya saw the horns she knew it was Gendry. You stupid stupid stupid STUPID! she thought. If he'd
been here she would have kicked him again.
The guards were talking loudly, but she was too far away to make out the words, especially with the
crows gabbling and flapping closer to hand. One of the spearmen snatched the helm off Gendry's head
and asked him a question, but he must not have liked the answer, because he smashed him across the
face with the butt of his spear and knocked him down. The one who'd captured him gave him a kick,
while the second spearman was trying on the bull's-head helm. Finally they pulled him to his feet and
marched him off toward the storehouse. When they opened the heavy wooden doors, a small boy darted
out, but one of the guards grabbed his arm and flung him back inside. Arya heard sobbing from inside the
building, and then a shriek so loud and full of pain that it made her bite her lip.
The guards shoved Gendry inside with the boy and barred the doors behind them. just then, a breath of
wind came sighing off the lake, and the banners stirred and lifted. The one on the tall staff bore the golden
lion, as she'd feared. On the other, three sleek black shapes ran across a field as yellow as butter. Dogs,
she thought. Arya had seen those dogs before, but where?
It didn't matter. The only thing that mattered was that they had Gendry. Even if he was stubborn and
stupid, she had to get him out. She wondered if they knew that the queen wanted him.
One of the guards took off his helm and donned Gendry's instead. It made her angry to see him wearing
it, but she knew there was nothing she could do to stop him. She thought she heard more screams from
inside the windowless storehouse, muffled by the masonry, but it was hard to be certain.
She stayed long enough to see the guard changed, and much more besides. Men came and went. They
led their horses down to the stream to drink. A hunting party returned from the wood, carrying a deer's
carcass slung from a pole. She watched them clean and gut it and build a cookfire on the far side of the
stream, and the smell of cooking meat mingled queerly with the stench of corruption. Her empty belly
roiled and she thought she might retch. The prospect of food brought other men out of the houses, near
all of them wearing bits of mail or boiled leather. When the deer was cooked, the choicest portions were
carried to one of the houses.


She thought that the dark might let her crawl close and free Gendry, but the guards kindled torches off
the cookfire. A squire brought meat and bread to the two guarding the storehouse, and later two more
men joined them and they all passed a skin of wine from hand to hand. When it was empty the others left,
but the two guards remained, leaning on their spears.
Arya's arms and legs were stiff when she finally wriggled out from under the briar into the dark of the
wood. It was a black night, with a thin sliver of moon appearing and disappearing as the clouds blew
past. Silent as a shadow, she told herself as she moved through the trees. In this darkness she dared not
run, for fear of tripping on some unseen root or losing her way. On her left Gods Eye lapped calmly
against its shores. on her right a wind sighed through the branches, and leaves rustled and stirred. Far off,
she heard the howling of wolves.
Lommy and Hot Pie almost shit themselves when she stepped out of the trees behind them. "Quiet," she
told them, putting an arm around Weasel when the little girl came running up.
Hot Pie stared at her with big eyes. "We thought you left us." He had his shortsword in hand, the one
Yoren had taken off the gold cloak. "I was scared you was a wolf."
"Where's the Bull?" asked Lommy.
"They caught him," Arya whispered. "We have to get him out. Hot Pie, you got to help. We'll sneak up
and kill the guards, and then I'll open the door."
Hot Pie and Lommy exchanged a look. "How many?"
"I couldn't count," Arya admitted. "Twenty at least, but only two on the door."
Hot Pie looked as if he were going to cry. "We can't fight twenty."
"You only need to fight one. I'll do the other and we'll get Gendry out and run."
"We should yield," Lommy said. "Just go in and yield."
Arya shook her head stubbornly.
"Then just leave him, Arry," Lommy pleaded. "They don't know
about the rest of us. If we hide, they'll go away, you know they will. It's not our fault Gendry's captured."
"You're stupid, Lommy," Arya said angrily. "You'll die if we don't get Gendry out. Who's going to carry
you?"
"You and Hot Pie."
"All the time, with no one else to help? We'll never do it. Gendry was the strong one. Anyhow, I don't
care what you say, I'm going back for him." She looked at Hot Pie. "Are you coming?"
Hot Pie glanced at Lommy, at Arya, at Lommy again. "I'll come," he said reluctantly.
"Lommy, you keep Weasel here."


He grabbed the little girl by the hand and pulled her close. "What if the wolves come?"
"Yield," Arya suggested.
Finding their way back to the village seemed to take hours. Hot Pie kept stumbling in the dark and losing
his way, and Arya had to wait for him and double back. Finally she took him by the hand and led him
along through the trees. "Just be quiet and follow." When they could make out the first faint glow of the
village fires against the sky, she said, "There's dead men hanging on the other side of the hedge, but
they're nothing to be scared of, just remember fear cuts deeper than swords. We have to go real quiet
and slow." Hot Pie nodded.
She wriggled under the briar first and waited for him on the far side, crouched low. Hot Pie emerged
pale and panting, face and arms bloody with long scratches. He started to say something, but Arya put a
finger to his lips. On hands and knees, they crawled along the gibbet, beneath the swaying dead. Hot Pie
never once looked up, nor made a sound.
Until the crow landed on his back, and he gave a muffled gasp. "Who's there?" a voice boomed
suddenly from the dark.
Hot Pie leapt to his feet. "I yield!" He threw away his sword as dozens of crows rose shrieking and
complaining to flap about the corpses. Arya grabbed his leg and tried to drag him back down, but he
wrenched loose and ran forward, waving his arms. "I yield, I yield."
She bounced up and drew Needle, but by then men were all around her. Arya slashed at the nearest,
but he blocked her with a steel-clad arm, and someone else slammed into her and dragged her to the
ground, and a third man wrenched the sword from her grasp. When she tried to bite, her teeth snapped
shut on cold dirty chainmail. "Oho, a fierce one," the man said, laughing. The blow from his iron-clad fist
near knocked her head off.
They talked over her as she lay hurting, but Arya could not seem to understand the words. Her ears
rang. When she tried to crawl off, the earth moved beneath her. They took Needle. The shame of that
hurt
worse than the pain, and the pain hurt a lot. Jon had given her that sword. Syrio had taught her to use it.
Finally someone grabbed the front of her jerkin, yanked her to her knees. Hot Pie was kneeling too,
before the tallest man Arya had ever seen, a monster from one of Old Nan's stories. She never saw
where the giant had come from. Three black dogs raced across his faded yellow surcoat, and his face
looked as hard as if it had been cut from stone. Suddenly Arya knew where she had seen those dogs
before. The night of the tourney at King's Landing, all the knights had hung their shields outside their
pavilions. "That one belongs to the Hound's brother," Sansa had confided when they passed the black
dogs on the yellow field. "He's even bigger than Hodor, you'll see. They call him the Mountain That
Rides."
Arya let her head droop, only half aware of what was going on around her. Hot Pie was yielding some
more. The Mountain said, "You'll lead us to these others," and walked off. Next she was stumbling past
the dead men on their gibbet, while Hot Pie told their captors he'd bake them pies and tarts if they didn't
hurt him. Four men went with them. One carried a torch, one a longsword; two had spears.
They found Lommy where they'd left him, under the oak. "I yield," he called out at once when he saw
them. He'd flung away his own spear and raised his hands, splotchy green with old dye. "I yield. Please."


The man with the torch searched around under the trees. "Are you the last? Baker boy said there was a
girl."
"She ran off when she heard you coming," Lommy said. "You made a lot of noise." And Arya thought,
Run, Weasel, run as far as you can, run and hide and never come back.
"Tell us where we can find that whoreson Dondarrion, and there'll be a hot meal in it for you."
"Who?" said Lommy blankly.
"I told you, this lot don't know no more than those cunts in the village. Waste o'bloody time."
One of the spearmen drifted over to Lommy. "Something wrong with your leg, boy?"
"It got hurt."
"Can you walk?" He sounded concerned.
"No," said Lommy. "You got to carry me."
"Think so?" The man lifted his spear casually and drove the point through the boy's soft throat. Lommy
never even had time to yield again. He jerked once, and that was all. When the man pulled his spear
loose, blood sprayed out in a dark fountain. "Carry him, he says," he muttered, chuckling.
CHAPTER 20
TYRION
They had warned him to dress warmly. Tyrion Lannister took them at their word. He was garbed in
heavy quilted breeches and a woolen doublet, and over it all he had thrown the shadowskin cloak he had
acquired in the Mountains of the Moon. The cloak was absurdly long, made for a man twice his height.
When he was not ahorse, the only way to wear the thing was to wrap it around him several times, which
made him look like a ball of striped fur.
Even so, he was glad he had listened. The chill in the long dank vault went bone deep. Timett had
chosen to retreat back up to the cellar after a brief taste of the cold below. They were somewhere under
the hill of Rhaenys, behind the Guildhall of the Alchemists. The damp stone walls were splotchy with
nitre, and the only light came from the sealed ironand-glass oil lamp that Hallyne the Pyromancer carried
so gingerly.
Gingerly indeed . . . and these would be the ginger jars. Tyrion lifted one for inspection. It was round
and ruddy, a fat clay grapefruit. A little big for his hand, but it would fit comfortably in the grip of a
normal man, he knew. The pottery was thin, so fragile that even he had been warned not to squeeze too
tightly, lest he crush it in his fist. The clay felt roughened, pebbled. Hallyne told him that was intentional.
"A smooth pot is more apt to slip from a man's grasp."


The wildfire oozed slowly toward the lip of the jar when Tyrion tilted it to peer inside. The color would
be a murky green, he knew, but the poor light made that impossible to confirm. "Thick," he observed.
"That is from the cold, my lord," said Hallyne, a pallid man with soft damp hands and an obsequious
manner. He was dressed in striped blackand-scarlet robes trimmed with sable, but the fur looked more
than a little patchy and moth-eaten. "As it warms, the substance will flow more easily, like lamp oil."
The substance was the pyromancers' own term for wildfire. They called each other wisdom as well,
which Tyrion found almost as annoying as their custom of hinting at the vast secret stores of knowledge
that they wanted him to think they possessed. once theirs had been a powerful guild, but in recent
centuries the maesters of the Citadel had supplanted the alchemists almost everywhere. Now only a few
of the older order remained, and they no longer even pretended to transmute metals . . .
. . . but they could make wildfire. "Water will not quench it, I am told.,,
"That is so. Once it takes fire, the substance will burn fiercely until it is no more. More, it will seep into
cloth, wood, leather, even steel, so they take fire as well."
Tyrion remembered the red priest Thoros of Myr and his flaming sword. Even a thin coating of wildfire
could burn for an hour. Thoros always needed a new sword after a melee, but Robert had been fond of
the man and ever glad to provide one. "Why doesn't it seep into the clay as well?"
"Oh, but it does," said Hallyne. "There is a vault below this one where we store the older pots. Those
from King Aerys's day. It was his fancy to have the jars made in the shapes of fruits. Very perilous fruits
indeed, my lord Hand, and, hmmm, riper now than ever, if you take my meaning. We have sealed them
with wax and pumped the lower vault full of water, but even so . . . by rights they ought to have been
destroyed, but so many of our masters were murdered during the Sack of King's Landing, the few
acolytes who remained were unequal to the task. And much of the stock we made for Aerys was lost.
Only last year, two hundred jars were discovered in a storeroom beneath the Great Sept of Baelor. No
one could recall how they came there, but I'm sure I do not need to tell you that the High Septon was
beside himself with terror. I myself saw that they were safely moved. I had a cart filled with sand, and
sent our most able acolytes. We worked only by night, we-"
"-did a splendid job, I have no doubt." Tyrion placed the jar he'd been holding back among its fellows.
They covered the table, standing in orderly rows of four and marching away into the subterranean
dimness. And there were other tables beyond, many other tables. "These, ah, fruits of the late King
Aerys, can they still be used?"
"Oh, yes, most certainly . . . but carefully, my lord, ever so carefully.
As it ages, the substance grows ever more, hmmmm, fickle, let us say. Any flame will set it afire.
Any spark. Too much heat and jars will blaze up of their own accord. It is not wise to let them sit in
sunlight, even for a short time. Once the fire begins within, the heat causes the substance to expand
violently, and the jars shortly fly to pieces. If other jars should happen to be stored in the same vicinity,
those go up as well, and so-"
"How many jars do you have at present?"
"This morning the Wisdom Munciter told me that we had seven thousand eight hundred and forty. That
count includes four thousand jars from King Aerys's day, to be sure."


"Our overripe fruits?"
Hallyne bobbed his head. "Wisdom Malliard believes we shall be able to provide a full ten thousand jars,
as was promised the queen. I concur." The pyromancer looked indecently pleased with that prospect.
Assuming our enemies give you the time. The pyromancers kept their recipe for wildfire a closely
guarded secret, but Tyrion knew that it was a lengthy, dangerous, and time-consuming process. He had
assumed the promise of ten thousand jars was a wild boast, like that of the bannerman who vows to
marshal ten thousand swords for his lord and shows up on the day of battle with a hundred and two. ff
they can truly give us ten thousand . . .
He did not know whether he ought to be delighted or terrified. Perhaps a smidge of both. "I trust that
your guild brothers are not engaging in any unseemly haste, Wisdom. We do not want ten thousand jars
of defective wildfire, nor even one . . . and we most certainly do not want any mishaps."
"There will be no mishaps, my lord Hand. The substance is prepared by trained acolytes in a series of
bare stone cells, and each jar is removed by an apprentice and carried down here the instant it is ready.
Above each work cell is a room filled entirely with sand. A protective spell has been laid on the floors,
hmmm, most powerful. Any fire in the cell below causes the floors to fall away, and the sand smothers
the blaze at once."
"Not to mention the careless acolyte." By spell Tyrion imagined Hallyne meant clever trick. He thought
he would like to inspect one of these false-ceilinged cells to see how it worked, but this was not the time.
Perhaps when the war was won.
"My brethren are never careless," Hallyne insisted. "If I may be, hmmmm, frank
"Oh, do.
"The substance flows through my veins, and lives in the heart of every pyromancer. We respect its
power. But the common soldier,
hmmmm, the crew of one of the queen's spitfires, say, in the unthinking frenzy of battle . . . an-y little
mistake can bring catastrophe. That cannot be said too often. My father often told King Aerys as much,
as his father told old King Jaehaerys."
"They must have listened," Tyrion said. "If they had burned the city down, someone would have told me.
So your counsel is that we had best be careful? "
"Be very careful," said Hallyne. "Be very very careful."
"These clay jars . . . do you have an ample supply?"
"We do, my lord, and thank you for asking."
"You won't mind if I take some, then. A few thousand."
"A few thousand?"
"Or however many your guild can spare, without interfering with production. It's empty pots I'm asking
for, understand. Have them sent round to the captains on each of the city gates."


"I will, my lord, but why . . . ?"
Tyrion smiled up at him. "When you tell me to dress warmly, I dress warmly. When you tell me to be
careful, well . . ." He gave a shrug. "I've seen enough. Perhaps you would be so good as to escort me
back up to my litter?"
"It would be my great, hmmm, pleasure, my lord." Hallyne lifted the lamp and led the way back to the
stairs. "It was good of you to visit us. A great honor, hmmm. It has been too long since the King's Hand
graced us with his presence. Not since Lord Rossart, and he was of our order. That was back in King
Aerys's day. King Aerys took a great interest in our work."
King Aerys used you to roast the flesh off his enemies. His brother Jaime had told him a few stories of
the Mad King and his pet pyromancers. "Joffrey will be interested as well, I have no doubt." Which is
why I'd best keep him well away from you.
"It is our great hope to have the king visit our Guildhall in his own royal person. I have spoken of it to
your royal sister. A great feast . . ."
It was growing warmer as they climbed. "His Grace has prohibited all feasting until such time as the war
is won." At my insistence. "The king does not think it fitting to banquet on choice food while his people
go without bread."
"A most, hmmm, loving gesture, my lord. Perhaps instead some few of us might call upon the king at the
Red Keep. A small demonstration of our powers, as it were, to distract His Grace from his many cares
for an evening. Wildfire is but one of the dread secrets of our ancient order. Many and wondrous are the
things we might show you."
"I will take it up with my sister." Tyrion had no objection to a few
magic tricks, but Joff's fondness for making men fight to the death was trial enough; he had no intention
of allowing the boy to taste the possibilities of burning them alive.
When at last they reached the top of the steps, Tyrion shrugged out of his shadowskin fur and folded it
over his arm. The Guildhall of the Alchemists was an imposing warren of black stone, but Hallyne led him
through the twists and turns until they reached the Gallery of the iron Torches, a long echoing chamber
where columns of green fire danced around black metal columns twenty feet tall. Ghostly flames
shimmered off the polished black marble of the walls and floor and bathed the hall in an emerald
radiance. Tyrion would have been more impressed if he hadn't known that the great iron torches had only
been lit this morning in honor of his visit, and would be extinguished the instant the doors closed behind
him. Wildfire was too costly to squander.
They emerged atop the broad curving steps that fronted on the Street of the Sisters, near the foot of
Visenya's Hill. He bid Hallyne farewell and waddled down to where Timett son of Timett waited with an
escort of Burned Men. Given his purpose today, it had seemed a singularly appropriate choice for his
guard. Besides, their scars struck terror in the hearts of the city rabble. That was all to the good these
days. Only three nights past, another mob had gathered at the gates of the Red Keep, chanting for food.
Joff had unleashed a storm of arrows against them, slaying four, and then shouted down that they had his
leave to eat their dead. Winning us still more friends.
Tyrion was surprised to see Brorm standing beside the litter as well. "What are you doing here?"


"Delivering your messages," Bronn said. "Ironhand wants you urgently at the Gate of the Gods. He won't
say why. And you've been summoned to Maegor's too."
"Summoned?" Tyrion knew of only one person who would presume to use that word. "And what does
Cersei want of me?"
Brorm shrugged. "The queen commands you to return to the castle at once and attend her in her
chambers. That stripling cousin of yours delivered the message. Four hairs on his lip and he thinks he's a
man."
"Four hairs and a knighthood. He's Ser Lancel now, never forget." Tyrion knew that Ser Jacelyn would
not send for him unless the matter was of import. "I'd best see what Bywater wants. Inform my sister that
I will attend her on my return."
"She won't like that," Brorm warned.
"Good. The longer Cersei waits, the angrier she'll become, and anger makes her stupid. I much prefer
angry and stupid to composed and cunning." Tyrion tossed his folded cloak into his litter, and Timett
helped him up after it.
The market square inside the Gate of the Gods, which in normal times would have been thronged with
farmers selling vegetables, was near deserted when Tyrion crossed it. Ser Jacelyn met him at the gate,
and raised his iron hand in brusque salute. "My lord. Your cousin Cleos Frey is here, come from Riverrun
under a peace banner with a letter from Robb Stark."
"Peace terms?"
"So he says."
"Sweet cousin. Show me to him."
The gold cloaks had confined Ser Cleos to a windowless guardroom in the gatehouse. He rose when
they entered. "Tyrion, you are a most welcome sight."
"That's not something I hear often, cousin."
"Has Cersei come with you?"
"My sister is otherwise occupied. Is this Stark's letter?" He plucked it off the table. "Ser Jacelyn, you
may leave us."
Bywater bowed and departed. "I was asked to bring the offer to the Queen Regent," Ser Cleos said as
the door shut.
"I shall." Tyrion glanced over the map that Robb Stark had sent with his letter. "All in good time, cousin.
Sit. Rest. You look gaunt and haggard." He looked worse than that, in truth.
"Yes." Ser Cleos lowered himself onto a bench. "It is bad in the riverlands, Tyrion. Around the Gods
Eye and along the kingsroad especially. The river lords are burning their own crops to try and starve us,
and your father's foragers are torching every village they take and putting the smallfolk to the sword."


That was the way of war. The smallfolk were slaughtered, while the highborn were held for ransom.
Remind me to thank the gods that I was bom a Lannister.
Ser Cleos ran a hand through his thin brown hair. "Even with a peace banner, we were attacked twice.
Wolves in mail, hungry to savage anyone weaker than themselves. The gods alone know what side they
started on, but they're on their own side now. Lost three men, and twice as many wounded."
"What news of our foe?" Tyrion turned his attention back to Stark's terms. The boy does not want too
much. Only half the realm, the release of our captives, hostages, his father's sword . . . oh, yes, and his sis
ters.
"The boy sits idle at Riverrun," Ser Cleos said. "I think he fears to face your father in the field. His
strength grows less each day. The river lords have departed, each to defend his own lands."
Is this what Father intended? Tyrion rolled up Stark's map. "These terms will never do."
"Will you at least consent to trade the Stark girls for Tion and Willem?" Ser Cleos asked plaintively.
Tion Frey was his younger brother, Tyrion recalled. "No," he said gently, "but we'll propose our own
exchange of captives. Let me consult with Cersei and the council. We shall send you back to Riverrun
with our terms."
Clearly, the prospect did not cheer him. "My lord, I do not believe Robb Stark will yield easily. It is
Lady Catelyn who wants this peace, not the boy."
"Lady Catelyn wants her daughters." Tyrion pushed himself down from the bench, letter and map in
hand. "Ser Jacelyn will see that you have food and fire. You look in dire need of sleep, cousin. I will send
for you when we know more."
He found Ser Jacelyn on the ramparts, watching several hundred new recruits drilling in the field below.
With so many seeking refuge in King's Landing, there was no lack of men willing to join the City Watch
for a full belly and a bed of stiaw in the barracks, but Tyrion had no illusions about how well these ragged
defenders of theirs would fight if it came to battle.
"You did well to send for me," Tyrion said. "I shall leave Ser Cleos in your hands. He is to have every
hospitality."
"And his escort?" the commander wanted to know.
"Give them food and clean garb, and find a maester to see to their hurts. They are not to set foot inside
the city, is that understood?" It would never do to have the truth of conditions in King's Landing reach
Robb Stark in Riverrun.
"Well understood, my lord."
"Oh, and one more thing. The alchemists will be sending a large supply of clay pots to each of the city
gates. You're to use them to train the men who will work your spitfires. Fill the pots with green paint and
have them drill at loading and firing. Any man who spatters should be replaced. When they have
mastered the paint pots, substitute lamp oil and have them work at lighting the jars and firing them while
aflame. Once they learn to do that without burning themselves, they may be ready for wildfire."


Ser Jacelyn scratched at his cheek with his iron hand. "Wise measures. Though I have no love for that
alchemist's piss."
"Nor I, but I use what I'm given."
Once back inside his litter, Tyrion Lannister drew the curtains and plumped a cushion under his elbow.
Cersei would be displeased to learn that he had intercepted Stark's letter, but his father had sent him here
to rule, not to please Cersei.
It seemed to him that Robb Stark had given them a golden chance. Let the boy wait at Riverrun
dreaming of an easy peace. Tyrion would reply with terms of his own, giving the King in the North just
enough of what he wanted to keep him hopeful. Let Ser Cleos wear out his bony Frey rump riding to and
fro with offers and counters. All the while, their cousin Ser Stafford would be training and arming the new
host he'd raised at Casterly Rock. Once he was ready, he and Lord Tywin could smash the Tullys and
Starks between them.
Now if only Robert's brothers would be so accommodating. Glacial as his progress was, still Renly
Baratheon crept north and east with his huge southron host, and scarcely a night passed that Tyrion did
not dread being awakened with the news that Lord Stannis was sailing his fleet up the Blackwater Rush.
Well, it would seem I have a goodly stock of wildfire, but still . . .
The sound of some hubbub in the street intruded on his worries. Tyrion peered out cautiously between
the curtains. They were passing through Cobbler's Square, where a sizable crowd had gathered beneath
the leather awnings to listen to the rantings of a prophet. A robe of undyed wool belted with a hempen
rope marked him for one of the begging brothers.
"Corruption!" the man cried shrilly. "There is the warning! Behold the Father's scourge!" He pointed at
the fuzzy red wound in the sky. From this vantage, the distant castle on Aegon's High Hill was directly
behind him, with the comet hanging forebodingly over its towers. A clever choice of stage, Tyrion
reflected. "We have become swollen, bloated, foul. Brother couples with sister in the bed of kings, and
the fruit of their incest capers in his palace to the piping of a twisted little monkey demon. Highborn ladies
fornicate with fools and give birth to monsters! Even the High Septon has forgotten the gods! He bathes
in scented waters and grows fat on lark and lamprey while his people starve! Pride comes before prayer,
maggots rule our castles, and gold is all . . . but no more! The Rotten Summer is at an end, and the
Whoremonger King is brought low! When the boar did open him, a great stench rose to heaven and a
thousand snakes slid forth from his belly, hissing and biting!" He jabbed his bony finger back at comet
and castle. "There comes the Harbinger! Cleanse yourselves, the gods cry out, lest ye be cleansed! Bathe
in the wine of righteousness, or you shall be bathed in fire! Fire!"
"Fire!" other voices echoed, but the hoots of derision almost drowned them out. Tyrion took solace from
that. He gave the command to continue, and the litter rocked like a ship on a rough sea as the Burned
Men cleared a path. Twisted little monkey demon indeed. The wretch did have a point about the High
Septon, to be sure. What was it that Moon
Boy had said of him the other day? A pious man who worships the Seven so fervently that he eats a
meal for each of them whenever he sits to table. The memory of the fool's jape made Tyrion smile.
He was pleased to reach the Red Keep without further incident. As he climbed the steps to his
chambers, Tyrion felt a deal more hopeful than he had at dawn. Time, that's all I truly need, time to piece
it all together. Once the chain is done . . . He opened the door to his solar.


Cersei turned away from the window, her skirts swirling around her slender hips. "How dare you ignore
my summons!"
"Who admitted you to my tower?"
"Your tower? This is my son's royal castle."
"So they tell me." Tyrion was not amused. Crawn would be even less so; his Moon Brothers had the
guard today. "I was about to come to you, as it happens."
"Were you?"
He swung the door shut behind him. "You doubt me?"
"Always, and with good reason."
"I'm hurt." Tyrion waddled to the sideboard for a cup of wine. He knew no surer way to work up a thirst
than talking with Cersei. "If I've given you offense, I would know how."
"What a disgusting little worm you are. Myrcella is my only daughter. Did you truly imagine that I would
allow you to sell her like a bag of oats? "
Myrcella, he thought. Well, that egg has hatched. Let's see what color the chick is. "Hardly a bag of
oats. Myrcella is a princess. Some would say this is what she was born for. Or did you plan to marry her
to Tommen?"
Her hand lashed out, knocking the wine cup from his hand to spill on the floor. "Brother or no, I should
have your tongue out for that. I am Joffrey's regent, not you, and I say that Myrcella will not be shipped
off to this Dornishman the way I was shipped to Robert Baratheon."
Tyrion shook wine off his fingers and sighed. "Why not? She'd be a deal safer in Dorne than she is here."
"Are you utterly ignorant or simply perverse? You know as well as I that the Martells have no cause to
love us."
"The Martells have every cause to hate us. Nonetheless, I expect them to agree. Prince Doran's
grievance against House Lannister goes back only a generation, but the Dornishmen have warred against
Storm's End and Highgarden for a thousand years, and Renly has taken Dorne's allegiance for granted.
Myrcella is nine, Trystane Martell eleven. I have proposed they wed when she reaches her fourteenth
year. Until such time, she would be an honored guest at Sunspear, under Prince Doran's protection."
"A hostage," Cersei said, mouth tightening.
"An honored guest," Tyrion insisted, "and I suspect Martell will treat Myrcella more kindly than Joffrey
has treated Sansa Stark. I had in mind to send Ser Arys Oakheart with her. With a knight of the
Kingsguard as her sworn shield, no one is like to forget who or what she is."
"Small good Ser Arys will do her if Doran Martell decides that my daughter's death would wash out his
sister's."


"Martell is too honorable to murder a nine-year-old girl, particularly one as sweet and innocent as
Myrcella. So long as he holds her he can be reasonably certain that we'll keep faith on our side, and the
terms are too rich to refuse. Myrcella is the least part of it. I've also offered him his sister's killer, a
council seat, some castles on the Marches . . ."
"Too much." Cersei paced away from him, restless as a lioness, skirts swirling. "You've offered too
much, and without my authority or consent."
"This is the Prince of Dorne we are speaking of. If Id offered less, he'd likely spit in my face."
"Too much!" Cersei insisted, whirling back.
"What would you have offered him, that hole between your legs?" Tyrion said, his own anger flaring.
This time he saw the slap coming. His head snapped around with a crack. "Sweet sweet sister," he said,
"I promise you, that was the last time you will ever strike me."
His sister laughed. "Don't threaten me, little man. Do you think Father's letter keeps you safe? A piece of
paper. Eddard Stark had a piece of paper too, for all the good it did him."
Eddard Stark did not have the City Watch, Tyrion thought, nor my clansmen, nor the sellswords that
Bronn has hired. I do. Or so he hoped. Trusting in Varys, in Ser Jacelyn Bywater, in Bronn. Lord Stark
had probably had his delusions as well.
Yet he said nothing. A wise man did not pour wildfire on a brazier. Instead he poured a fresh cup of
wine. "How safe do you think Myrcella will be if King's Landing falls? Renly and Stannis will mount her
head beside yours."
And Cersei began to cry.
Tyrion Lannister could not have been more astonished if Aegon the Conqueror himself had burst into the
room, riding on a dragon and juggling lemon pies. He had not seen his sister weep since they were
children together at Casterly Rock. Awkwardly, he took a step toward her. When your sister cries, you
were supposed to comfort her . . . but this was Cersei! He reached a tentative hand for her shoulder.
"Don't touch me," she said, wrenching away. It should not have hurt, yet it did, more than any slap.
Red-faced, as angry as she was griefstricken,
Cersei struggled for breath. "Don't look at me, not . . . not like this . . . not you."
Politely, Tyrion turned his back. "I did not mean to frighten you. I promise you, nothing will happen to
Myrcella."
"Liar," she said behind him. "I'm not a child, to be soothed with empty promises. You told me you would
free Jaime too. Well, where is he? "
"In Riverrun, I should imagine. Safe and under guard, until I find a way to free him."
Cersei sniffed. "I should have been born a man. I would have no need of any of you then. None of this
would have been allowed to happen. How could Jaime let himself be captured by that boy? And Father,
I trusted in him, fool that I am, but where is he now that he's wanted? What is he doing?"


"Making war."
"From behind the walls of Harrenhal?" she said scornfully. "A curious way of fighting. It looks
suspiciously like hiding."
"Look again."
"What else would you call it? Father sits in one castle, and Robb Stark sits in another, and no one does
anything."
"There is sitting and there is sitting," Tyrion suggested. "Each one waits for the other to move, but the lion
is still, poised, his tail twitching, while the fawn is frozen by fear, bowels turned to jelly. No matter which
way he bounds, the lion will have him, and he knows it."
"And you're quite certain that Father is the lion?"
Tyrion grinned. "It's on all our banners."
She ignored the jest. "If it was Father who'd been taken captive, Jaime would not be sitting by idly, I
promise you."
faime would be battering his host to bloody bits against the walls of Riverrun, and the Others take their
chances. He never did have any patience, no more than you, sweet sister. "Not all of us can be as bold
as Jaime, but there are other ways to win wars. Harrenhal is strong and well situated."
"And King's Landing is not, as we both know perfectly well. While Father plays lion and fawn with the
Stark boy, Renly marches up the roseroad. He could be at our gates any day now!"
"The city will not fall in a day. From Harrenhal it is a straight, swift march down the kingsroad. Renly will
scarce have unlimbered his siege engines before Father takes him in the rear. His host will be the
hammer, the city walls the anvil. it makes a lovely picture."
Cersei's green eyes bored into him, wary, yet hungry for the reassurance he was feeding her. "And if
Robb Stark marches?"
"Harrenhal is close enough to the fords of the Trident so that Roose
Bolton cannot bring the northern foot across to join with the Young Wolf's horse. Stark cannot march on
King's Landing without taking Harrenhal first, and even with Bolton he is not strong enough to do that."
Tyrion tried his most winning smile. "Meanwhile Father lives off the fat of the riverlands, while our uncle
Stafford gathers fresh levies at the Rock."
Cersei regarded him suspiciously. "How could you know all this? Did Father tell you his intentions when
he sent you here?"
"No. I glanced at a map."
Her look turned to disdain. "You've conjured up every word of this in that grotesque head of yours,
haven't you, Imp?"


Tyrion tsked. "Sweet sister, I ask you, if we weren't winning, would the Starks have sued for peace?"
He drew out the letter that Ser Cleos Frey had brought. "The Young Wolf has sent us terms, you see.
Unacceptable terms, to be sure, but still, a beginning. Would you care to see them? "
"Yes." That fast, she was all queen again. "How do you come to have them? They should have come to
me."
"What else is a Hand for, if not to hand you things?" Tyrion handed her the letter. His cheek still
throbbed where Cersei's hand had left its mark. Let her flay half my face, it will be a small price to pay
for her consent to the Dornish marriage. He would have that now, he could sense it.
And certain knowledge of an informer too . . . well, that was the plum in his pudding.
CHAPTER 21
BRAN
Dancer was draped in bardings of snowy white wool emblazoned with the grey direwolf of House Stark,
while Bran wore grey breeches and white doublet, his sleeves and collar trimmed with vair. Over his
heart was his wolf's-head brooch of silver and polished jet. He would sooner have had Summer than a
silver wolf on his breast, but Ser Rodrik had been unyielding.
The low stone steps balked Dancer only for a moment. When Bran urged her on, she took them easily.
Beyond the wide oak-and-iron doors, eight long rows of trestle tables filled Winterfell's Great Hall, four
on each side of the center aisle. Men crowded shoulder to shoulder on the benches. "Stark!" they called
as Bran trotted past, rising to their feet. "Winterfell! Winterfell!"
He was old enough to know that it was not truly him they shouted for-it was the harvest they cheered, it
was Robb and his victories, it was his lord father and his grandfather and all the Starks going back eight
thousand years. Still, it made him swell with pride. For so long as it took him to ride the length of that hall
he forgot that he was broken. Yet when he reached the dais, with every eye upon him, Osha and Hodor
undid his straps and buckles, lifted him off Dancer's back, and carried him to the high seat of his fathers.
Ser Rodrik was seated to Bran's left, his daughter Beth beside him. Rickon was to his right, his mop of
shaggy auburn hair grown so long
that it brushed his ermine mantle. He had refused to let anyone cut it since their mother had gone. The
last girl to try had been bitten for her efforts. "I wanted to ride too," he said as Hodor led Dancer away.
"I ride better than you."
"You don't, so hush up," he told his brother. Ser Rodrik bellowed for quiet. Bran raised his voice. He
bid them welcome in the name of his brother, the King in the North, and asked them to thank the gods
old and new for Robb's victories and the bounty of the harvest. "May there be a hundred more," he
finished, raising his father's silver goblet.
"A hundred more!" Pewter tankards, clay cups, and iron-banded drinking horns clashed together. Bran's
wine was sweetened with honey and fragrant with cinnamon and cloves, but stronger than he was used


to. He could feel its hot snaky fingers wriggling through his chest as he swallowed. By the time he set
down the goblet, his head was swimming.
"You did well, Bran," Ser Rodrik told him. "Lord Eddard would have been most proud." Down the
table, Maester Luwin nodded his agreement as the servers began to carry in the food.
Such food Bran had never seen; course after course after course, so much that he could not manage
more than a bite or two of each dish. There were great joints of aurochs roasted with leeks, venison pies
chunky with carrots, bacon, and mushrooms, mutton chops sauced in honey and cloves, savory duck,
peppered boar, goose, skewers of pigeon and capon, beef-and-barley stew, cold fruit soup. Lord
Wyman had brought twenty casks of fish from White Harbor packed in salt and seaweed; whitefish and
winkles, crabs and mussels, clams, herring, cod, salmon, lobster and lampreys. There was black bread
and honeycakes and oaten biscuits; there were turnips and pease and beets, beans and squash and huge
red onions; there were baked apples and berry tarts and pears poached in strongwine. Wheels of white
cheese were set at every table, above and below the salt, and flagons of hot spice wine and chilled
autumn ale were passed up and down the tables.
Lord Wyman's musicians played bravely and well, but harp and fiddle and horn were soon drowned
beneath a tide of talk and laughter, the clash of cup and plate, and the snarling of hounds fighting for table
scraps. The singer sang good songs, "Iron Lances" and "The Burning of the Ships" and "The Bear and the
Maiden Fair," but only Hodor seemed to be listening. He stood beside the piper, hopping from one foot
to the other.
The noise swelled to a steady rumbling roar, a great heady stew of sound. Ser Rodrik talked with
Maester Luwin above Beth's curly head, while Rickon screamed happily at the Walders. Bran had not
wanted the Freys at the high table, but the maester reminded him that they would
soon be kin. Robb was to marry one of their aunts, and Arya one of their uncles. "She never will," Bran
said, "not Arya," but Maester Luwin was unyielding, so there they were beside Rickon.
The serving men brought every dish to Bran first, that he might take the lord's portion if he chose. By the
time they reached the ducks, he could eat no more. After that he nodded approval at each course in turn,
and waved it away. If the dish smelled especially choice, he would send it to one of the lords on the dais,
a gesture of friendship and favor that Maester Luwin told him he must make. He sent some salmon down
to poor sad Lady Hornwood, the boar to the boisterous Umbers, a dish of goose-in-berries to Cley
Cerwyn, and a huge lobster to Joseth the master of horse, who was neither lord nor guest, but had seen
to Dancer's training and made it possible for Bran to ride. He sent sweets to Hodor and Old Nan as well,
for no reason but he loved them. Ser Rodrik reminded him to send something to his foster brothers, so he
sent Little Walder some boiled beets and Big Walder the buttered turnips.
On the benches below, Winterfell. men mixed with smallfolk from the winter town, friends from the
nearer holdfasts, and the escorts of their lordly guests. Some faces Bran had never seen before, others he
knew as well as his own, yet they all seemed equally foreign to him. He watched them as from a distance,
as if he still sat in the window of his bedchamber looking down on the yard below, seeing everything yet a
part of nothing.
Osha moved among the tables, pouring ale. one of Leobald Tallhart's men slid a hand up under her skirts
and she broke the flagon over his head, to roars of laughter. Yet Mikken had his hand down some
woman's bodice, and she seemed not to mind. Bran watched Farlen make his red bitch beg for bones
and smiled at Old Nan plucking at the crust of a hot pie with wrinkled fingers. On the dais, Lord Wyman
attacked a steaming plate of lampreys as if they were an enemy host. He was so fat that Ser Rodrik had


commanded that a special wide chair be built for him to sit in, but he laughed loud and often, and Bran
thought he liked him. Poor wan Lady Hornwood sat beside him, her face a stony mask as she picked
listlessly at her food. At the opposite end of the high table, Hothen and Mors were playing a drinking
game, slamming their horns together as hard as knights meeting in joust.
It is too hot here, and too noisy, and they are all getting drunk. Bran itched under his grey and white
woolens, and suddenly he wished he were anywhere but here. It is cool in the godswood now Steam is
rising off the hot pools, and the red leaves of the weirwood are rustling. The smells are richer than here,
and before long the moon will rise and my brother will sing to it.
"Bran?" Ser Rodrik said. "You do not eat."
The waking dream had been so vivid, for a moment Bran had not known where he was. "I'll have more
later," he said. "My belly's full to bursting."
The old knight's white mustache was pink with wine. "You have done well, Bran. Here, and at the
audiences. You will be an especial fine lord one day, I think."
I want to be a knight. Bran took another sip of the spiced honey wine from his father's goblet, grateful
for something to clutch. The lifelike head of a snarling direwolf was raised on the side of the cup. He felt
the silver muzzle pressing against his palm, and remembered the last time he had seen his lord father drink
from this goblet.
it had been the night of the welcoming feast, when King Robert had brought his court to Winterfell.
Summer still reigned then. His parents had shared the dais with Robert and his queen, with her brothers
beside her. Uncle Benjen had been there too, all in black. Bran and his brothers and sisters sat with the
king's children, Joffrey and Tommen and Princess Myrcella, who'd spent the whole meal gazing at Robb
with adoring eyes. Arya made faces across the table when no one was looking; Sansa listened raptly
while the king's high harper sang songs of chivalry, and Rickon kept asking why Jon wasn't with them.
"Because he's a bastard," Bran finally had to whisper to him.
And now they are all gone. It was as if some cruel god had reached down with a great hand and swept
them all away, the girls to captivity, Jon to the Wall, Robb and Mother to war, King Robert and Father
to their graves, and perhaps Uncle Benjen as well . . .
Even down on the benches, there were new men at the tables. Jory was dead, and Fat Tom, and
Porther, Alyn, Desmond, Hullen who had been master of horse, Harwin his son . . . all those who had
gone south with his father, even Septa Mordane and Vayon Poole. The rest had ridden to war with
Robb, and might soon be dead as well for all Bran knew. He liked Hayhead and Poxy Tym and Skittrick
and the other new men well enough, but he missed his old friends.
He looked up and down the benches at all the faces happy and sad, and wondered who would be
missing next year and the year after. He might have cried then, but he couldn't. He was the Stark in
Winterfell, his father's son and his brother's heir, and almost a man grown.
At the foot of the hall, the doors opened and a gust of cold air made the torches flame brighter for an
insta nt. Alebelly led two new guests into the feast. "The Lady Meera of House Reed," the rotund
guardsman bellowed over the clamor. "With her brother, Jojen, of Greywater Watch."
Men looked up from their cups and trenchers to eye the newcomers. Bran heard Little Walder mutter,
"Frogeaters," to Big Walder beside him. Ser Rodrik climbed to his feet. "Be welcome, friends, and share


this
harvest with us." Serving men hurried to lengthen the table on the dais, fetching trestles and chairs.
"Who are they?" Rickon asked.
"Mudmen," answered Little Walder disdainfully. "They're thieves and cravens, and they have green teeth
from eating frogs."
Maester Luwin crouched beside Bran's seat to whisper counsel in his ear. "You must greet these ones
warmly. I had not thought to see them here, but . . . you know who they are?"
Bran nodded. "Crannogmen. From the Neck."
"Howland Reed was a great friend to your father," Ser Rodrik told him. "These two are his, it would
seem."
As the newcomers walked the length of the hall, Bran saw that one was indeed a girl, though he would
never have known it by her dress. She wore lambskin breeches soft with long use, and a sleeveless jerkin
armored in bronze scales. Though near Robb's age, she was slim as a boy, with long brown hair knotted
behind her head and only the barest suggestion of breasts. A woven net hung from one slim hip, a long
bronze knife from the other; under her arm she carried an old iron greathelm spotted with rust; a frog
spear and round leathern shield were strapped to her back.
Her brother was several years younger and bore no weapons. All his garb was green, even to the leather
of his boots, and when he came closer Bran saw that his eyes were the color of moss, though his teeth
looked as white as anyone else's. Both Reeds were slight of build, slender as swords and scarcely taller
than Bran himself. They went to one knee before the dais.
"My lords of Stark," the girl said. "The years have passed in their hundreds and their thousands since my
folk first swore their fealty to the King in the North. My lord father has sent us here to say the words
again, for all our people."
She is looking at me, Bran realized. He had to make some answer. "My brother Robb is fighting in the
south," he said, "but you can say your words to me, if you like."
"To Winterfell we pledge the faith of Greywater," they said together. "Hearth and heart and harvest we
yield up to you, my lord. Our swords and spears and arrows are yours to command. Grant mercy to our
weak, help to our helpless, and justice to all, and we shall never fail you."
"I swear it by earth and water," said the boy in green.
"I swear it by bronze and iron," his sister said.
"We swear it by ice and fire," they finished together.
Bran groped for words. Was he supposed to swear something back to them? Their oath was not one he
had been taught. "May your winters be
short and your summers bountiful," he said. That was usually a good thing to say. "Rise. I'm Brandon
Stark."


The girl, Meera, got to her feet and helped her brother up. The boy stared at Bran all the while. "We
bring you gifts of fish and frog and fowl," he said.
"I thank you." Bran wondered if he would have to eat a frog to be polite. "I offer you the meat and mead
of Winterfell." He tried to recall all he had been taught of the crannogmen, who dwelt amongst the bogs
of the Neck and seldom left their wetlands. They were a poor folk, fishers and frog-hunters who lived in
houses of thatch and woven reeds on floating islands hidden in the deeps of the swamp. It was said that
they were a cowardly people who fought with poisoned weapons and preferred to hide from foes rather
than face them in open battle. And yet Howland Reed had been one of Father's staunchest companions
during the war for King Robert's crown, before Bran was born.
The boy, Jojen, looked about the hall curiously as he took his seat. "Where are the direwolves?"
"In the godswood," Rickon answered. "Shaggy was bad."
"My brother would like to see them," the girl said.
Little Walder spoke up loudly. "He'd best watch they don't see him, or they'll take a bite out of him."
"They won't bite if I'm there." Bran was pleased that they wanted to see the wolves. "Summer won't
anyway, and he'll keep Shaggydog away." He was curious about these mudmen. He could not recall ever
seeing one before. His father had sent letters to the Lord of Greywater over the years, but none of the
crannogmen had ever called at Winterfell. He would have liked to talk to them more, but the Great Hall
was so noisy that it was hard to hear anyone who wasn't right beside you.
Ser Rodrik was right beside Bran. "Do they truly eat frogs?" he asked the old knight.
"Aye," Ser Rodrik said. "Frogs and fish and lizard-lions, and all manner of birds."
Maybe they don't have sheep and cattle, Bran thought. He commanded the serving men to bring them
mutton chops and a slice off the aurochs and fill their trenchers with beef-and-barley stew. They seemed
to like that well enough. The girl caught him staring at her and smiled. Bran blushed and looked away.
Much later, after all the sweets had been served and washed down with gallons of surnmerwine, the
food was cleared and the tables shoved back against the walls to make room for the dancing. The music
grew wilder, the drummers joined in, and Hother Umber brought forth a huge curved warhorn banded in
silver. When the singer reached the part in
"The Night That Ended" where the Night's Watch rode forth to meet the Others in the Battle for the
Dawn, he blew a blast that set all the dogs to barking.
Two Glover men began a spinning skirl on bladder and woodharp. Mors Umber was the first on his feet.
He seized a passing serving girl by the arm, knocking the flagon of wine out of her hands to shatter on the
floor. Amidst the rushes and bones and bits of bread that littered the stone, he whirled her and spun her
and tossed her in the air. The girl squealed with laughter and turned red as her skirts swirled and lifted.
Others soon joined in. Hodor began to dance all by himself, while Lord Wyman asked little Beth Cassel
to partner him. For all his size, he moved gracefully. When he tired, Cley Cerwyn danced with the child in
his stead. Ser Rodrik approached Lady Hornwood, but she made her excuses and took her leave. Bran
watched long enough to be polite, and then had Hodor summoned. He was hot and tired, flushed from


the wine, and the dancing made him sad. it was something else he could never do. "I want to go."
"Hodor," Hodor shouted back, kneeling. Maester Luwin and Hayhead lifted him into his basket. The
folk of Winterfell had seen this sight half a hundred times, but doubtless it looked queer to the guests,
some of whom were more curious than polite. Bran felt the stares.
They went out the rear rather than walk the length of the hall, Bran ducking his head as they passed
through the lord's door. In the dim-lit gallery outside the Great Hall, they came upon Joseth the master of
horse engaged in a different sort of riding. He had some woman Bran did not know shoved up against the
wall, her skirts around her waist. She was giggling until Hodor stopped to watch. Then she screamed.
"Leave them be, Hodor," Bran had to tell him. "Take me to my bedchamber."
Hodor carried him up the winding steps to his tower and knelt beside one of the iron bars that Mikken
had driven into the wall. Bran used the bars to move himself to the bed, and Hodor pulled off his boots
and breeches. "You can go back to the feast now, but don't go bothering Joseth and that woman," Bran
said.
"Hodor," Hodor replied, bobbing his head.
When he blew out his bedside candle, darkness covered him like a soft, familiar blanket. The faint sound
of music drifted through his shuttered window.
Something his father had told him once when he was little came back to him suddenly. He had asked
Lord Eddard if the Kingsguard were truly the finest knights in the Seven Kingdoms. "No longer," he
answered, "but once they were a marvel, a shining lesson to the world."
"Was there one who was best of all?"
"The finest knight I ever saw was Ser Arthur Dayne, who fought with
a blade called Dawn, forged from the heart of a fallen star. They called him the Sword of the Morning,
and he would have killed me but for Howland Reed." Father had gotten sad then, and he would say no
more. Bran wished he had asked him what he meant.
He went to sleep with his head full of knights in gleaming armor, fighting with swords that shone like
starfire, but when the dream came he was in the godswood again. The smells from the kitchen and the
Great Hall were so strong that it was almost as if he had never left the feast. He prowled beneath the
trees, his brother close behind him. This night was wildly alive, full of the howling of the man-pack at their
play. The sounds made him restless. He wanted to run, to hunt, he wanted to
The rattle of iron made his ears prick up. His brother heard it too. They raced through the undergrowth
toward the sound. Bounding across the still water at the foot of the old white one, he caught the scent of
a stranger, the mansmell well mixed with leather and earth and iron.
The intruders had pushed a few yards into the wood when he came upon them; a female and a young
male, with no taint of fear to them, even when he showed them the white of his teeth. His brother growled
low in his throat, yet still they did not run.
"Here they come," the female said. Meera, some part of him whispered, some wisp of the sleeping boy
lost in the wolf dream. "Did you know they would be so big?"


"They will be bigger still before they are grown," the young male said, watching them with eyes large,
green, and unafraid. "The black one is full of fear and rage, but the grey is strong . . . stronger than he
knows . . . can you feel him, sister?"
"No," she said, moving a hand to the hilt of the long brown knife she wore. "Go careful, Joien."
"He won't hurt me. This is not the day I die." The male walked toward them, unafraid, and reached out
for his muzzle, a touch as light as a summer breeze. Yet at the brush of those fingers the wood dissolved
and the very ground turned to smoke beneath his feet and swirled away laughing, and then he was
spinning and falling, falling, falling . . .
CHAPTER 22
CALTELYN
As she slept amidst the rolling grasslands, Catelyn dreamt that Bran was whole again, that Arya and
Sansa held hands, that Rickon was still a babe at her breast. Robb, crownless, played with a wooden
sword, and when all were safe asleep, she found Ned in her bed, smiling.
Sweet it was, sweet and gone too soon. Dawn came cruel, a dagger of light. She woke aching and alone
and weary; weary of riding, weary of hurting, weary of duty. I want to weep, she thought. I want to be
comforted. I'm so tired of being strong. I want to be foolish and frightened for once. Just for a small
while, that's all . . . a day . . . an hour . . .
Outside her tent, men were stirring. She heard the whicker of horses, Shadd complaining of stiffness in
his back, Ser Wendel calling for his bow. Catelyn wished they would all go away. They were good men,
loyal, yet she was tired of them all. It was her children she yearned after. One day, she promised herself
as she lay abed, one day she would allow herself to be less than strong.
But not today. It could not be today.
Her fingers seemed more clumsy than usual as she fumbled on her clothes. She supposed she ought to
be grateful that she had any use of her hands at all. The dagger had been Valyrian steel, and Valyrian
steel bites deep and sharp. She had only to look at the scars to remember.
Outside, Shadd was stirring oats into a kettle, while Ser Wendel
Manderly sat stringing his bow. "My lady," he said when Catelyn emerged. "There are birds in this grass.
Would you fancy a roast quail to break your fast this morning?"
"Oats and bread are sufficient . . . for all of us, I think. We have many leagues yet to ride, Ser Wendel."
"As you will, my lady." The knight's moon face looked crestfallen, the tips of his great walrus mustache
twitching with disappointment. "Oats and bread, and what could be better?" He was one of the fattest
men Catelyn had ever known, but howevermuch he loved his food, he loved his honor more.
"Found some nettles and brewed a tea," Shadd announced. "Will m'lady take a cup?"


"Yes, with thanks."
She cradled the tea in her scarred hands and blew on it to cool it. Shadd was one of the Winterfell men.
Robb had sent twenty of his best to see her safely to Renly. He had sent five lordlings as well, whose
names and high birth would add weight and honor to her mission. As they made their way south, staying
well clear of towns and holdfasts, they had seen bands of mailed men more than once, and glimpsed
smoke on the eastern horizon, but none had dared molest them. They were too weak to be a threat, too
many to be easy prey. Once across the Blackwater, the worst was behind. For the past four days, they
had seen no signs of war.
Catelyn had never wanted this. She had told Robb as much, back in Riverrun. "When last I saw Renly,
he was a boy no older than Bran. I do not know him. Send someone else. My place is here with my
father, for whatever time he has left."
Her son had looked at her unhappily. "There is no one else. I cannot go myself. Your father's too ill. The
Blackfish is my eyes and ears, I dare not lose him. Your brother I need to hold Riverrun when we
march-"
"March?" No one had said a word to her of marching.
"I cannot sit at Riverrun waiting for peace. It makes me look as if I were afraid to take the field again.
When there are no battles to fight, men start to think of hearth and harvest, Father told me that. Even my
northmen grow restless."
My northmen, she thought. He is even starting to talk like a king. "No one has ever died of restlessness,
but rashness is another matter. We've planted seeds, let them grow."
Robb shook his head stubbornly. "We've tossed some seeds in the wind, that's all. if your sister Lysa
was coming to aid us, we would have heard by now. How many birds have we sent to the Eyrie, four? I
want peace too, but why should the Lannisters give me anything if all I do is sit here while my army melts
away around me swift as summer snow?"
"So rather than look craven, you will dance to Lord Tywin's pipes?" she threw back. "He wants you to
march on Harrenhal, ask your uncle Brynden if-"
"I said nothing of Harrenhal," Robb said. "Now, will you go to Renly for me, or must I send the
Greatjon?"
The memory brought a wan smile to her face. Such an obvious ploy, that, yet deft for a boy of fifteen.
Robb knew how ill-suited a man like Greatjon Umber would be to treat with a man like Renly
Baratheon, and he knew that she knew it as well. What could she do but accede, praying that her father
would live until her return? Had Lord Hoster been well, he would have gone himself, she knew. Still, that
leavetaking was hard, hard. He did not even know her when she came to say farewell. "Minisa," he
called her, "where are the children? My little Cat, my sweet Lysa . . ." Catelyn had kissed him on the
brow and told him his babes were well. "Wait for me, my lord," she said as his eyes closed. "I waited for
you, oh, so many times. Now you must wait for me."
Fate drives me south and south again, Catelyn thought as she sipped the astringent tea, when it is north I
should be going, north to home. She had written to Bran and Rickon, that last night at Riverrun. I do not
forget you, my sweet ones, you must believe that. It is only that your brother needs me more.


"We ought to reach the upper Mander today, my lady," Ser Wendel announced while Shadd spooned
out the porridge. "Lord Renly will not be far, if the talk be true."
And what do I tell him when I find him? That my son holds him no true king? She did not relish this
meeting. They needed friends, not more enemies, yet Robb would never bend the knee in homage to a
man he felt had no claim to the throne.
Her bowl was empty, though she could scarce remember tasting the porridge. She laid it aside. "It is
time we were away." The sooner she spoke to Renly, the sooner she could turn for home. She was the
first one mounted, and she set the pace for the column. Hal Mollen rode beside her, bearing the banner
of House Stark, the grey direwolf on an ice-white field.
They were still a half day's ride from Renly's camp when they were taken. Robin Flint had ranged ahead
to scout, and he came galloping back with word of a far-eyes watching from the roof of a distant
windmill. By the time Catelyn's party reached the mill, the man was long gone. They pressed on, covering
not quite a mile before Renly's outriders came swooping down on them, twenty men mailed and
mounted, led by a grizzled greybeard of a knight with bluejays on his surcoat.
When he saw her banners, he trotted up to her alone. "My lady," he
called, "I am Ser Colen of Greenpools, as it please you. These are dangerous lands you cross."
"Our business is urgent," she answered him. "I come as envoy from my son, Robb Stark, the King in the
North, to treat with Renly Baratheon, the King in the South."
"King Renly is the crowned and anointed lord of all the Seven Kingdoms, my lady," Ser Colen
answered, though courteously enough. "His Grace is encamped with his host near Bitterbridge, where the
roseroad crosses the Mander. It shall be my great honor to escort you to him." The knight raised a
mailed hand, and his men formed a double column flanking Catelyn and her guard. Escort or captor? she
wondered. There was nothing to be done but trust in Ser Colen's honor, and Lord Renly's.
They saw the smoke of the camp's fires when they were still an hour from the river. Then the sound
came drifting across farm and field and rolling plain, indistinct as the murmur of some distant sea, but
swelling as they rode closer. By the time they caught sight of the Mander's muddy waters glinting in the
sun, they could make out the voices of men, the clatter of steel, the whinny of horses. Yet neither sound
nor smoke prepared them for the host itself.
Thousands of cookfires filled the air with a pale smoky haze. The horse lines alone stretched out over
leagues. A forest had surely been felled to make the tall staffs that held the banners. Great siege engines
lined the grassy verge of the roseroad, mangonels and trebuchets and rolling rams mounted on wheels
taller than a man on horseback. The steel points of pikes flamed red with sunlight, as if already blooded,
while the pavilions of the knights and high lords sprouted from the grass like silken mushrooms. She saw
men with spears and men with swords, men in steel caps and mail shirts, camp followers strutting their
charms, archers fletching arrows, teamsters driving wagons, swineherds driving pigs, pages running
messages, squires honing swords, knights riding palfreys, grooms leading ill-tempered destriers. "This is a
fearsome lot of men," Ser Wendel Manderly observed as they crossed the ancient stone span from which
Bitterbridge took its name.
"That it is," Catelyn agreed.


Near all the chivalry of the south had come to Renly's call, it seemed. The golden rose of Highgarden
was seen everywhere: sewn on the right breast of armsmen and servants, flapping and fluttering from the
green silk banners that adorned lance and pike, painted upon the shields hung outside the pavilions of the
sons and brothers and cousins and uncles of House Tyrell. As well Catelyn spied the fox-and-flowers of
House Florent, Fossoway apples red and green, Lord Tarly's striding huntsman, oak leaves for
Oakheart, cranes for Crane, a cloud of black-and-orange butterflies for the Mullendores.
Across the Mander, the storm lords had raised their standardsRenly's own bannermen, sworn to House
Baratheon and Storm's End. Catelyn recognized Bryce Caron's nightingales, the Penrose quills, and Lord
Estermont's sea turtle, green on green. Yet for every shield she knew, there were a dozen strange to her,
borne by the small lords sworn to the bannermen, and by hedge knights and freeriders, who had come
swarming to make Renly Baratheon a king in fact as well as name.
Renly's own standard flew high over all. From the top of his tallest siege tower, a wheeled oaken
immensity covered with rawhides, streamed the largest war banner that Catelyn had ever seen-a cloth big
enough to carpet many a hall, shimmering gold, with the crowned stag of Baratheon black upon it,
prancing proud and tall.
"My lady, do you hear that noise?" asked Hallis Mollen, trotting close. "What is that?"
She listened. Shouts, and horses screaming, and the clash of steel, and . . . "Cheering," she said. They
had been riding up a gentle slope toward a line of brightly colored pavilions on the height. As they passed
between them, the press of men grew thicker, the sounds louder. And then she saw.
Below, beneath the stone-and-timber battlements of a small castle, a melee was in progress.
A field had been cleared off, fences and galleries and tilting barriers thrown up. Hundreds were gathered
to watch, perhaps thousands. From the looks of the grounds, torn and muddy and littered with bits of
dinted armor and broken lances, they had been at it for a day or more, but now the end was near. Fewer
than a score of knights remained ahorse, charging and slashing at each other as watchers and fallen
combatants cheered them on. She saw two destriers collide in full armor, going down in a tangle of steel
and horseflesh. "A tourney," Hal Mollen declared. He had a penchant for loudly announcing the obvious.
"Oh, splendid," Ser Wendel Manderly said as a knight in a rainbowstriped cloak wheeled to deliver a
backhand blow with a long-handled axe that shattered the shield of the man pursuing him and sent him
reeling in his stirrups.
The press in front of them made further progress difficult. "Lady Stark," Ser Colen said, "if your men
would be so good as to wait here, I'll present you to the king."
"As you say." She gave the command, though she had to raise her voice to be heard above the tourney
din. Ser Colen walked his horse slowly through the throngs, with Catelyn riding in his wake. A roar went
up from the crowd as a helmetless red-bearded man with a griffin on his shield went down before a big
knight in blue armor. His steel was a deep cobalt, even the blunt morningstar he wielded with such deadly
effect,
his mount barded in the quartered sun-and-moon heraldry of House Tarth.
"Red Ronnet's down, gods be damned," a man cursed.
"Loras'll do for that blue-" a companion answered before a roar drowned out the rest of his words.


Another man was fallen, trapped beneath his injured horse, both of them screaming in pain. Squires
rushed out to aid them.
This is madness, Catelyn thought. Real enemies on every side and half the realm in flames, and Renly sits
here playing at war like a boy with his first wooden sword.
The lords and ladies in the gallery were as engrossed in the melee as the men on the ground. Catelyn
marked them well. Her father had oft treated with the southron lords, and not a few had been guests at
Riverrun. She recognized Lord Mathis Rowan, stouter and more florid than ever, the golden tree of his
House spread across his white doublet. Below him sat Lady Oakheart, tiny and delicate, and to her left
Lord Randyll Tarly of Horn Hill, his greatsword Heartsbane propped up against the back of his seat.
Others she knew only by their sigils, and some not at all.
In their midst, watching and laughing with his young queen by his side, sat a ghost in a golden crown.
Small wonder the lords gather around him with such fervor, she thought, he is Robert come again. Renly
was handsome as Robert had been handsome; long of limb and broad of shoulder, with the same
coalblack hair, fine and straight, the same deep blue eyes, the same easy smile. The slender circlet around
his brows seemed to suit him well. It was soft gold, a ring of roses exquisitely wrought; at the front lifted a
stag's head of dark green jade, adorned with golden eyes and golden antlers.
The crowned stag decorated the king's green velvet tunic as well, worked in gold thread upon his chest;
the Baratheon sigil in the colors of Highgarden. The girl who shared the high seat with him was also of
Highgarden: his young queen, Margaery, daughter to Lord Mace Tyrell. Their marriage was the mortar
that held the great southron alliance together, Catelyn knew. Renly was one-and-twenty, the girl no older
than Robb, very pretty, with a doe's soft eyes and a mane of curling brown hair that fell about her
shoulders in lazy ringlets. Her smile was shy and sweet.
Out in the field, another man lost his seat to the knight in the rainbow-striped cloak, and the king shouted
approval with the rest. "Loras!" she heard him call. "Loras! Highgarden!" The queen clapped her hands
together in excitement.
Catelyn turned to see the end of it. Only four men were left in the
fight now, and there was small doubt whom king and commons favored. She had never met Ser Loras
Tyrell, but even in the distant north one heard tales of the prowess of the young Knight of Flowers. Ser
Loras rode a tall white stallion in silver mail, and fought with a long-handled axe. A crest of golden roses
ran down the center of his helm.
Two of the other survivors had made common cause. They spurred their mounts toward the knight in the
cobalt armor. As they closed to either side, the blue knight reined hard, smashing one man full in the face
with his splintered shield while his black destrier lashed out with a steel-shod hoof at the other. In a blink,
one combatant was unhorsed, the other reeling. The blue knight let his broken shield drop to the ground
to free his left arm, and then the Knight of Flowers was on him. The weight of his steel seemed to hardly
diminish the grace and quickness with which Ser Loras moved, his rainbow cloak swirling about him.
The white horse and the black one wheeled like lovers at a harvest dance, the riders throwing steel in
place of kisses. Longaxe flashed and morningstar whirled. Both weapons were blunted, yet still they
raised an awful clangor. Shieldless, the blue knight was getting much the worse of it. Ser Loras rained
down blows on his head and shoulders, to shouts of "Highgarden!" from the throng. The other gave


answer with his morningstar, but whenever the ball came crashing in, Ser Loras interposed his battered
green shield, emblazoned with three golden roses. When the longaxe caught the blue knight's hand on the
backswing and sent the morningstar flying from his grasp, the crowd screamed like a rutting beast. The
Knight of Flowers raised his axe for the final blow.
The blue knight charged into it. The stallions slammed together, the blunted axehead smashed against the
scarred blue breastplate . . . but somehow the blue knight had the haft locked between steel-gauntleted
fingers. He wrenched it from Ser Loras's hand, and suddenly the two were grappling mount-to-mount,
and an instant later they were falling. As their horses pulled apart, they crashed to the ground with
bone-jarring force. Loras Tyrell, on the bottom, took the brunt of the impact. The blue knight pulled a
long dirk free and flicked open Tyrell's visor. The roar of the crowd was too loud for Catelyn to hear
what Ser Loras said, but she saw the word form on his split, bloody lips. Yield.
The blue knight climbed unsteady to his feet, and raised his dirk in the direction of Renly Baratheon, the
salute of a champion to his king. Squires dashed onto the field to help the vanquished knight to his feet.
When they got his helm off, Catelyn was startled to see how young he was. He could not have had more
than two years on Robb. The boy might have been as comely as his sister, but the broken lip, unfocused
eyes, and blood trickling through his matted hair made it hard to be certain.
"Approach," King Renly called to the champion.
He limped toward the gallery. At close hand, the brilliant blue armor looked rather less splendid;
everywhere it showed scars, the dents of mace and warhammer, the long gouges left by swords, chips in
the enameled breastplate and helm. His cloak hung in rags. From the way he moved, the man within was
no less battered. A few voices hailed him with cries of "Tarth!" and, oddly, 'A Beauty! A Beauty!" but
most were silent. The blue knight knelt before the king. "Grace," he said, his voice muffled by his dented
greathelm.
"You are all your lord father claimed you were." Renly's voice carried over the field. "I've seen Ser
Loras unhorsed once or twice . . . but never quite in that fashion."
"That were no proper unhorsing," complained a drunken archer nearby, a Tyrell rose sewn on his jerkin.
"A vile trick, pulling the lad down."
The press had begun to open up. "Ser Colen," Catelyn said to her escort, "who is this man, and why do
they mislike him so?"
Ser Colen frowned. "Because he is no man, my lady. That's Brienne of Tarth, daughter to Lord Selwyn
the Evenstar."
"Daughter?" Catelyn was horrified.
"Brienne the Beauty, they name her . . . though not to her face, lest they be called upon to defend those
words with their bodies."
She heard King Renly declare the Lady Brienne of Tarth the victor of the great melee at Bitterbridge,
last mounted of one hundred sixteen knights. "As champion, you may ask of me any boon that you
desire. If it lies in my power, it is yours."
"Your Grace," Brienne answered, "I ask the honor of a place among your Rainbow Guard. I would be
one of your seven, and pledge my life to yours, to go where you go, ride at your side, and keep you safe


from all hurt and harm."
"Done," he said. "Rise, and remove your helm."
She did as he bid her. And when the greathelm was lifted, Catelyn understood Ser Colen's words.
Beauty, they called her . . . mocking. The hair beneath the visor was a squirrel's nest of dirty straw, and
her face . . . Brienne's eyes were large and very blue, a young girl's eyes, trusting and guileless, but the
rest . . . her features were broad and coarse, her teeth prominent and crooked, her mouth too wide, her
lips so plump they seemed swollen. A thousand freckles speckled her cheeks and brow, and her nose
had been broken more than once. Pity filled Catelyn's heart. Is there any creature on earth as unfortunate
as an ugly woman?
And yet, when Renly cut away her torn cloak and fastened a rainbow in its place, Brienne of Tarth did
not look unfortunate. Her smile lit up
her face, and her voice was strong and proud as she said, "My life for yours, Your Grace. From this day
on, I am your shield, I swear it by the old gods and the new." The way she looked at the king-looked
down at him, she was a good hand higher, though Renly was near as tall as his brother had been-was
painful to see.
"Your Grace!" Ser Colen of Greenpools swung down off his horse to approach the gallery. "I beg your
leave." He went to one knee. "I have the honor to bring you the Lady Catelyn Stark, sent as envoy by
her son Robb, Lord of Winterfell."
"Lord of Winterfell and King in the North, ser," Catelyn corrected him. She dismounted and moved to
Ser Colen's side.
King Renly looked surprised. "Lady Catelyn? We are most pleased." He turned to his young queen.
"Margaery my sweet, this is the Lady Catelyn Stark of Winterfell."
"You are most welcome here, Lady Stark," the girl said, all soft courtesy. "I am sorry for your loss."
"You are kind," said Catelyn.
"My lady, I swear to you, I will see that the Lannisters answer for your husband's murder," the king
declared. "When I take King's Landing, I'll send you Cersei's head."
And will that bring my Ned back to me? she thought. "it will be enough to know that justice has been
done, my lord."
"Your Grace," Brienne the Blue corrected sharply. "And you should kneel when you approach the king."
"The distance between a lord and a grace is a small one, my lady," Catelyn said. "Lord Renly wears a
crown, as does my son. If you wish, we may stand here in the mud and debate what honors and titles are
rightly due to each, but it strikes me that we have more pressing matters to consider."
Some of Renly's lords bristled at that, but the king only laughed. "Well said, my lady. There will be time
enough for graces when these wars are done. Tell me, when does your son mean to march against
Harrenhal? "


Until she knew whether this king was friend or foe, Catelyn was not about to reveal the least part of
Robb's dispositions. "I do not sit on my son's war councils, my lord."
"So long as he leaves a few Lannisters for me, I'll not complain. What has he done with the Kingslayer?"
"Jaime Lannister is held prisoner at Riverrun."
"Still alive?" Lord Mathis Rowan seemed dismayed.
Bemused, Renly said, "It would seem the direwolf is gentler than the lion."
"Gentler than the Lannisters," murmured Lady Oakheart with a bitter smile, "is drier than the sea."
"I call it weak." Lord Randyll Tarly had a short, bristly grey beard and a reputation for blunt speech. "No
disrespect to you, Lady Stark, but it would have been more seemly had Lord Robb come to pay homage
to the king himself, rather than hiding behind his mother's skirts."
"King Robb is warring, my lord," Catelyn replied with icy courtesy, "not playing at tourney."
Renly grinned. "Go softly, Lord Randyll, I fear you're overmatched." He summoned a steward in the
livery of Storm's End. "Find a place for the lady's companions, and see that they have every comfort.
Lady Catelyn shall have my own pavilion. Since Lord Caswell has been so kind as to give me use of his
castle, I have no need of it. My lady, when you are rested, I would be honored if you would share our
meat and mead at the feast Lord Caswell is giving us tonight. A farewell feast. I fear his lordship is eager
to see the heels of my hungry horde."
"Not true, Your Grace," protested a wispy young man who must have been Caswell. "What is mine is
yours."
"Whenever someone said that to my brother Robert, he took them at their word," Renly said. "Do you
have daughters?"
"Yes, Your Grace. Two."
"Then thank the gods that I am not Robert. My sweet queen is all the woman I desire." Renly held out
his hand to help Margaery to her feet. "We'll talk again when you've had a chance to refresh yourself,
Lady Catelyn."
Renly led his bride back toward the castle while his steward conducted Catelyn to the king's green silk
pavilion. "If you have need of anything, you have only to ask, my lady."
Catelyn could scarcely imagine what she might need that had not already been provided. The pavilion
was larger than the common rooms of many an inn and furnished with every comfort: feather mattress and
sleeping furs, a wood-and-copper tub large enough for two, braziers, to keep off the night's chill, slung
leather camp chairs, a writing table with quills and inkpot, bowls of peaches, plums, and pears, a flagon
of wine with a set of matched silver cups, cedar chests packed full of Renly's clothing, books, maps,
game boards, a high harp, a tall bow and a quiver of arrows, a pair of red-tailed hunting hawks, a vertible
armory of fine weapons. He does not stint himself, this Renly, she thought as she looked about. Small
wonder this host moves so slowly.
Beside the entrance, the king's armor stood sentry; a suit of forestgreen plate, its fittings chased with


gold, the helm crowned by a great rack of golden antlers. The steel was polished to such a high sheen
that
she could see her reflection in the breastplate, gazing back at her as if from the bottom of a deep green
pond. The face of a drowned woman, Catelyn thought. Can you drown in grief? She turned away
sharply, angry with her own frailty. She had no time for the luxury of self-pity. She must wash the dust
from her hair and change into a gown more fitting for a king's feast.
Ser Wendel Manderly, Lucas Blackwood, Ser Perwyn Frey, and the rest of her highborn companions
accompanied her to the castle. The great hall of Lord Caswell's keep was great only by courtesy, yet
room was found on the crowded benches for Catelyn's men, amidst Renly's own knights. Catelyn was
assigned a place on the dais between red-faced Lord Mathis Rowan and genial Ser Jon Fossoway of the
green-apple Fossoways. Ser Jon made jests, while Lord Mathis inquired politely after the health of her
father, brother, and children.
Brienne of Tarth had been seated at the far end of the high table. She did not gown herself as a lady, but
chose a knight's finery instead, a velvet doublet quartered rose-and-azure, breeches and boots and a
finetooled swordbelt, her new rainbow cloak flowing down her back. No garb could disguise her
plainness, though; the huge freckled hands, the wide flat face, the thrust of her teeth. Out of armor, her
body seemed ungainly, broad of hip and thick of limb, with hunched muscular shoulders but no bosom to
speak of. And it was clear from her every action that Brienne knew it, and suffered for it. She spoke only
in answer, and seldom lifted her gaze from her food.
Of food there was plenty. The war had not touched the fabled bounty of Highgarden. While singers sang
and tumblers tumbled, they began with pears poached in wine, and went on to tiny savory fish rolled in
salt and cooked crisp, and capons stuffed with onions and mushrooms. There were great loaves of
brown bread, mounds of turnips and sweetcorn and pease, immense hams and roast geese and trenchers
dripping full of venison stewed with beer and barley. For the sweet, Lord Caswell's servants brought
down trays of pastries from his castle kitchens, cream swans and spun-sugar unicorns, lemon cakes in the
shape of roses, spiced honey biscuits and blackberry tarts, apple crisps and wheels of buttery cheese.
The rich foods made Catelyn queasy, but it would never do to show frailty when so much depended on
her strength. She ate sparingly, while she watched this man who would be king. Renly sat with his young
bride on his left hand and her brother on the right. Apart from the white linen bandage around his brow,
Ser Loras seemed none the worse for the day's misadventures. He was indeed as comely as Catelyn had
suspected he might be. When not glazed, his eyes were lively and intelligent, his hair an artless tumble of
brown locks that many a maid might have envied. He had replaced his tattered tourney cloak with a new
one; the same
brilliantly striped silk of Renly's Rainbow Guard, clasped with the golden rose of Highgarden.
From time to time, King Renly would feed Margaery some choice morsel off the point of his dagger, or
lean over to plant the lightest of kisses on her cheek, but it was Ser Loras who shared most of his jests
and confidences. The king enjoyed his food and drink, that was plain to see, yet he seemed neither
glutton nor drunkard. He laughed often, and well, and spoke amiably to highborn lords and lowly serving
wenches alike.
Some of his guests were less moderate. They drank too much and boasted too loudly, to her mind. Lord
Willum's sons Josua and Elyas disputed heatedly about who would be first over the walls of King's
Landing. Lord Varner dandled a serving girl on his lap, nuzzling at her neck while one hand went
exploring down her bodice. Guyard the Green, who fancied himself a singer, diddled a harp and gave


them a verse about tying lions' tails in knots, parts of which rhymed. Ser Mark Mullendore brought a
black-and-white monkey and fed him morsels from his own plate, while Ser Tanton of the red-apple
Fossoways climbed on the table and swore to slay Sandor Clegane in single combat. The vow might
have been taken more solemnly if Ser Tanton had not had one foot in a gravy boat when he made it.
The height of folly was reached when a plump fool came capering out in gold-painted tin with a cloth
lion's head, and chased a dwarf around the tables, whacking him over the head with a bladder. Finally
King Renly demanded to know why he was beating his brother. "Why, Your Grace, I'm the Kinslayer,"
the fool said.
"It's Kingslayer, fool of a fool," Renly said, and the hall rang with laughter.
Lord Rowan beside her did not join the merriment. "They are all so young," he said.
It was true. The Knight of Flowers could not have reached his second name day when Robert slew
Prince Rhaegar on the Trident. Few of the others were very much older. They had been babes during the
Sack of King's Landing, and no more than boys when Balon Greyjoy raised the Iron Islands in rebellion.
They are still unblooded, Catelyn thought as she watched Lord Bryce goad Ser Robar into juggling a
brace of daggers. It is all a game to them still, a tourney writ large, and all they see is the chance for glory
and honor and spoils. They are boys drunk on song and story, and like all boys, they think themselves
immortal.
"War will make them old," Catelyn said, "as it did us." She had been a girl when Robert and Ned and
Jon Arryn raised their banners against Aerys Targaryen, a woman by the time the fighting was done. "I
pity them."
"Why?" Lord Rowan asked her. "Look at them. They're young and
strong, full of life and laughter. And lust, aye, more lust than they know what to do with. There will be
many a bastard bred this night, I promise you. Why pity?"
"Because it will not last," Catelyn answered, sadly. "Because they are the knights of summer, and winter
is coming."
"Lady Catelyn, you are wrong." Brienne regarded her with eyes as blue as her armor. "Winter will never
come for the likes of us. Should we die in battle, they will surely sing of us, and it's always summer in the
songs. In the songs all knights are gallant, all maids are beautiful, and the sun is always shining."
Winter comes for all of us, Catelyn thought. For me, it came when Ned died. It will come for you too,
child, and sooner than you like. She did not have the heart to say it.
The king saved her. "Lady Catelyn," Renly called down. "I feel the need of some air. Will you walk with
me?"
Catelyn stood at once. "I should be honored."
Brienne was on her feet as well. "Your Grace, give me but a moment to don my mail. You should not be
without protection."
King Renly smiled. "If I am not safe in the heart of Lord Caswell's castle, with my own host around me,
one sword will make no matter . . . not even your sword, Brienne. Sit and eat. If I have need of you, I'll


send for you."
His words seemed to strike the girl harder than any blow she had taken that afternoon. "As you will,
Your Grace." Brienne sat, eyes downcast. Renly took Catelyn's arm and led her from the hall, past a
slouching guardsman who straightened so hurriedly that he near dropped his spear. Renly clapped the
man on the shoulder and made a jest of it.
"This way, my lady." The king took her through a low door into a stair tower. As they started up, he
said, "Perchance, is Ser Barristan Selmy with your son at Riverrun?"
"No," she answered, puzzled. "Is he no longer with Joffrey? He was the Lord Commander of the
Kingsguard."
Renly shook his head. "The Lannisters told him he was too old and gave his cloak to the Hound. I'm told
he left King's Landing vowing to take up service with the true king. That cloak Brienne claimed today
was the one I was keeping for Selmy, in hopes that he might offer me his sword. When he did not turn up
at Highgarden, I thought perhaps he had gone to Riverrun instead."
"We have not seen him.
"He was old, yes, but a good man still. I hope he has not come to harm. The Lannisters are great fools."
They climbed a few more steps. "On the night of Robert's death, I offered your husband a hundred
swords and urged him to take Joffrey into his power. Had he listened, he would
be regent today, and there would have been no need for me to claim the throne."
"Ned refused you." She did not have to be told.
"He had sworn to protect Robert's children," Renly said. "I lacked the strength to act alone, so when
Lord Eddard turned me away, I had no choice but to flee. Had I stayed, I knew the queen would see to
it that I did not long outlive my brother."
Had you stayed, and lent your support to Ned, he might still be alive, Catelyn thought bitterly.
"I liked your husband well enough, my lady. He was a loyal friend to Robert, I know . . . but he would
not listen and he would not bend. Here, I wish to show you something." They had reached the top of the
stairwell. Renly pushed open a wooden door, and they stepped out onto the roof.
Lord Caswell's keep was scarcely tall enough to call a tower, but the country was low and flat and
Catelyn could see for leagues in all directions. Wherever she looked, she saw fires. They covered the
earth like fallen stars, and like the stars there was no end to them. "Count them if you like, my lady,"
Renly said quietly. "You will still be counting when dawn breaks in the east. How many fires burn around
Riverrun tonight, I wonder?"
Catelyn could hear faint music drifting from the Great Hall, seeping out into the night. She dare not count
the stars.
"I'm told your son crossed the Neck with twenty thousand swords at his back," Renly went on. "Now
that the lords of the Trident are with him, perhaps he commands forty thousand."
No, she thought, not near so many, we have lost men in battle, and others to the harvest.


"I have twice that number here," Renly said, "and this is only part of my strength. Mace Tyrell remains at
Highgarden with another ten thousand, I have a strong garrison holding Storm's End, and soon enough
the Dornishmen will join me with all their power. And never forget my brother Stannis, who holds
Dragonstone and commands the lords of the narrow sea."
"It would seem that you are the one who has forgotten Stannis," Catelyn said, more sharply than she'd
intended.
"His claim, you mean?" Renly laughed. "Let us be blunt, my lady. Stannis would make an appalling king.
Nor is he like to become one. Men respect Stannis, even fear him, but precious few have ever loved
him."
"He is still your elder brother. If either of you can be said to have a right to the Iron Throne, it must be
Lord Stannis."
Renly shrugged. "Tell me, what right did my brother Robert ever have
to the Iron Throne?" He did not wait for an answer. "Oh, there was talk of the blood ties between
Baratheon and Targaryen, of weddings a hundred years past, of second sons and elder daughters. No
one but the maesters care about any of it. Robert won the throne with his warhammer." He swept a hand
across the campfires that burned from horizon to horizon. "Well, there is my claim, as good as Robert's
ever was. If your son supports me as his father supported Robert, he'll not find me ungenerous. I will
gladly confirm him in all his lands, titles, and honors. He can rule in Winterfell as he pleases. He can even
go on calling himself King in the North if he likes, so long as he bends the knee and does me homage as
his overlord. King is only a word, but fealty, loyalty, service . . . those I must have."
"And if he will not give them to you, my lord?"
"I mean to be king, my lady, and not of a broken kingdom. I cannot say it plainer than that. Three
hundred years ago, a Stark king knelt to Aegon the Dragon, when he saw he could not hope to prevail.
That was wisdom. Your son must be wise as well. Once he joins me, this war is good as done. We-"
Renly broke off suddenly, distracted. "What's this now?"
The rattle of chains heralded the raising of the portcullis. Down in the yard below, a rider in a winged
helm urged his well-lathered horse under the spikes. "Summon the king!" he called.
Renly vaulted up into a crenel. "I'm here, ser."
"Your Grace." The rider spurred his mount closer. "I came swift as I could. From Storm's End. We are
besieged, Your Grace, Ser Cortnay defies them, but . . ."
"But . . . that's not possible. I would have been told if Lord Tywin left Harrenhal."
"These are no Larmisters, my liege. It's Lord Stannis at your gates. King Stannis, he calls himself now."
CHAPTER 23
JON


A blowing rain lashed at Jon's face as he spurred his horse across the swollen stream. Beside him, Lord
Commander Mormont gave the hood of his cloak a tug, muttering curses on the weather. His raven sat
on his shoulder, feathers ruffled, as soaked and grumpy as the Old Bear himself. A gust of wind sent wet
leaves flapping round them like a flock of dead birds. The haunted forest, Jon thought ruefully. The
drowned forest, more like it.
He hoped Sam was holding up, back down the column. He was not a good rider even in fair weather,
and six days of rain had made the ground treacherous, all soft mud and hidden rocks. When the wind
blew, it drove the water right into their eyes. The Wall would be flowing off to the south, the melting ice
mingling with warm rain to wash down in sheets and rivers. Pyp and Toad would be sitting near the fire in
the common room, drinking cups of mulled wine before their supper. Jon envied them. His wet wool
clung to him sodden and itching, his neck and shoulders ached fiercely from the weight of mail and
sword, and he was sick of salt cod, salt beef, and hard cheese.
Up ahead a hunting horn sounded a quavering note, half drowned beneath the constant patter of the rain.
"Buckwell's horn," the Old Bear announced. "The gods are good; Craster's still there." His raven gave a
single flap of his big wings, croaked "Corn," and ruffled his feathers up again.
Jon had often heard the black brothers tell tales of Craster and his
keep. Now he would see it with his own eyes. After seven empty villages, they had all come to dread
finding Craster's as dead and desolate as the rest, but it seemed they would be spared that. Perhaps the
Old Bear will finally get some answers, he thought. Anyway, we'll be out of the rain.
Thoren Smallwood swore that Craster was a friend to the Watch, despite his unsavory reputation. "The
man's half-mad, I won't deny it," he'd told the Old Bear, "but you'd be the same if you'd spent your life in
this cursed wood. Even so, he's never turned a ranger away from his fire, nor does he love Mance
Rayder. He'll give us good counsel."
So long as he gives us a hot meal and a chance to dry our clothes, I'll be happy. Dywen said Craster
was a kinslayer, liar, raper, and craven, and hinted that he trafficked with slavers and demons. "And
worse," the old forester would add, clacking his wooden teeth. "There's a cold smell to that one, there
is."
"Jon," Lord Mormont commanded, "ride back along the column and spread the word. And remind the
officers that I want no trouble about Craster's wives. The men are to mind their hands and speak to these
women as little as need be."
"Aye, my lord." Jon turned his horse back the way they'd come. It was pleasant to have the rain out of
his face, if only for a little while. Everyone he passed seemed to be weeping. The march was strung out
through half a mile of woods.
in the midst of the baggage train, Jon passed Samwell Tarly, slumped in his saddle under a wide floppy
hat. He was riding one dray horse and leading the others. The drumming of the rain against the hoods of
their cages had the ravens squawking and fluttering. "You put a fox in with them?" Jon called out.
Water ran off the brim of Sam's hat as he lifted his head. "Oh, hullo, Jon. No, they just hate the rain, the
same as us."


"How are you faring, Sam?"
"Wetly." The fat boy managed a smile. "Nothing has killed me yet, though."
"Good. Craster's Keep is just ahead. If the gods are good, he'll let us sleep by his fire."
Sam looked dubious. "Dolorous Edd says Craster's a terrible savage. He marries his daughters and
obeys no laws but those he makes himself. And Dywen told Grenn he's got black blood in his veins. His
mother was a wildling woman who lay with a ranger, so he's a bas Suddenly he realized what he was
about to say.
"A bastard," Jon said with a laugh. "You can say it, Sam. I've heard the word before." He put the spurs
to his surefooted little garron. "I need to hunt down Ser Ottyn. Be careful around Craster's women." As if
Samwell Tarly needed warning on that score. "We'll talk later, after we've made camp."
Jon carried the word back to Ser Ottyn Wythers, plodding along with the rear guard. A small
prune-faced man of an age with Mormont, Ser Ottyn always looked tired, even at Castle Black, and the
rain had beaten him down unmercifully. "Welcome tidings," he said. "This wet has soaked my bones, and
even my saddle sores complain of saddle sores."
On his way back, Jon swung wide of the column's line of march and took a shorter path through the
thick of the wood. The sounds of man and horse diminished, swallowed up by the wet green wild, and
soon enough he could hear only the steady wash of rain against leaf and tree and rock. It was
midafternoon, yet the forest seemed as dark as dusk. Jon wove a path between rocks and puddles, past
great oaks, grey-green sentinels, and black-barked ironwoods. in places the branches wove a canopy
overhead and he was given a moment's respite from the drumming of the rain against his head. As he
rode past a lightning-blasted chestnut tree overgrown with wild white roses, he heard something rustling
in the underbrush. "Ghost," he called out. "Ghost, to me."
But it was Dywen who emerged from the greenery, forking a shaggy grey garron with Grenn ahorse
beside him. The Old Bear had deployed outriders to either side of the main column, to screen their march
and warn of the approach of any enemies, and even there he took no chances, sending the men out in
pairs.
"Ah, it's you, Lord Snow." Dywen smiled an oaken smile; his teeth were carved of wood, and fit badly.
"Thought me and the boy had us one o' them Others to deal with. Lose your wolf?"
"He's off hunting." Ghost did not like to travel with the column, but he would not be far. When they made
camp for the night, he'd find his way to Jon at the Lord Commander's tent.
"Fishing, I'd call it, in this wet," Dywen said.
"My mother always said rain was good for growing crops," Grenn put in hopefully.
"Aye, a good crop of mildew," Dywen said. "The best thing about a rain like this, it saves a man from
taking baths." He made a clacking sound on his wooden teeth.
"Buckwell's found Craster," Jon told them.


"Had he lost him?" Dywen chuckled. "See that you young bucks don't go nosing about Craster's wives,
you hear?"
Jon smiled. "Want them all for yourself, Dywen?"
Dywen clacked his teeth some more. "Might be I do. Craster's got ten fingers and one cock, so he don't
count but to eleven. He'd never miss a couple."
"How many wives does he have, truly?" Grenn asked.
"More'n you ever will, brother. Well, it's not so hard when you breed your own. There's your beast,
Snow."
Ghost was trotting along beside Jon's horse with tail held high, his white fur ruffed up thick against the
rain. He moved so silently Jon could not have said just when he appeared. Grenn's mount shied at the
scent of him; even now, after more than a year, the horses were uneasy in the presence of the direwolf.
"With me, Ghost." Jon spurred off to Craster's Keep.
He had never thought to find a stone castle on the far side of the Wall, but he had pictured some sort of
motte-and-bailey with a wooden palisade and a timber tower keep. What they found instead was a
midden heap, a pigsty, an empty sheepfold, and a windowless daub-and-wattle hall scarce worthy of the
name. It was long and low, chinked together from logs and roofed with sod. The compound stood atop a
rise too modest to name a hill, surrounded by an earthen dike. Brown rivulets flowed down the slope
where the rain had eaten gaping holes in the defenses, to join a rushing brook that curved around to the
north, its thick waters turned into a murky torrent by the rains.
On the southwest, he found an open gate flanked by a pair of animal skulls on high poles: a bear to one
side, a ram to the other. Bits of flesh still clung to the bear skull, Jon noted as he joined the line riding
past. Within, Jarmen Buckwell's scouts and men from Thoren Smallwood's van were setting up horse
lines and struggling to raise tents. A host of piglets rooted about three huge sows in the sty. Nearby, a
small girl pulled carrots from a garden, naked in the rain, while two women tied a pig for slaughter. The
animal's squeals were high and horrible, almost human in their distress. Chett's hounds barked wildly in
answer, snarling and snapping despite his curses, with a pair of Craster's dogs barking back. When they
saw Ghost, some of the dogs broke off and ran, while others began to bay and growl. The direwolf
ignored them, as did Jon.
Well, thirty of us will be warm and dry, Jon thought once he'd gotten a good look at the hall. Perhaps as
many as fifty. The place was much too small to sleep two hundred men, so most would need to remain
outside. And where to put them? The rain had turned half the compound yard to ankle-deep puddles and
the rest to sucking mud. Another dismal night was in prospect.
The Lord Commander had entrusted his mount to Dolorous Edd. He was cleaning mud out of the
horse's hooves as Jon dismounted. "Lord Mormont's in the hall," he announced. "He said for you to join
him. Best leave the wolf outside, he looks hungry enough to eat one of Craster's children. Well, truth be
told, I'm hungry enough to eat one of Craster's children, so long as he was served hot. Go on, I'll see to
your horse. If
it's warm and dry inside, don't tell me, I wasn't asked in." He flicked a glob of wet mud out from under a
horseshoe. "Does this mud look like shit to you? Could it be that this whole hill is made of Craster's shit?"
Jon smiled. "Well, I hear he's been here a long time,"


"You cheer me not. Go see the Old Bear."
"Ghost, stay," he commanded. The door to Craster's Keep was made of two flaps of deerhide. Jon
shoved between them, stooping to pass under the low lintel. Two dozen of the chief rangers had
preceded him, and were standing around the firepit in the center of the dirt floor while puddles collected
about their boots. The hall stank of soot, dung, and wet dog. The air was heavy with smoke, yet
somehow still damp. Rain leaked through the smoke hole in the roof. It was all a single room, with a
sleeping loft above reached by a pair of splintery ladders.
Jon remembered how he'd felt the day they had left the Wall: nervous as a maiden, but eager to glimpse
the mysteries and wonders beyond each new horizon. Well, here's one of the wonders, he told himself,
gazing about the squalid, foul-smelling hall. The acrid smoke was making his eyes water. A pity that Pyp
and Toad can't see all they're missing.
Craster sat above the fire, the only man to enjoy his own chair. Even Lord Commander Mormont must
seat himself on the common bench, with his raven muttering on his shoulder. Jarman Buckwell stood
behind, dripping from patched mail and shiny wet leather, beside Thoren Smallwood in the late Ser
Jaremy's heavy breastplate and sable-trimmed cloak.
Craster's sheepskin jerkin and cloak of sewn skins made a shabby contrast, but around one thick wrist
was a heavy ring that had the glint of gold. He looked to be a powerful man, though well into the winter
of his days now, his mane of hair grey going to white. A flat nose and a drooping mouth gave him a cruel
look, and one of his ears was missing. So this is a wildling. Jon remembered Old Nan's tales of the
savage folk who drank blood from human skulls. Craster seemed to be drinking a thin yellow beer from a
chipped stone cup. Perhaps he had not heard the stories.
"I've not seen Benjen Stark for three years," he was telling Mormont. "And if truth be told, I never once
missed him." A half-dozen black puppies and the odd pig or two skulked among the benches, while
women in ragged deerskins passed horns of beer, stirred the fire, and chopped carrots and onions into a
kettle.
"He ought to have passed here last year," said Thoren Smallwood. A dog came sniffing round his leg. He
kicked it and sent it off yipping.
Lord Mormont said, "Ben was searching for Ser Waymar Royce, who'd vanished with Gared and young
Will."
"Aye, those three I recall. The lordling no older than one of these
pups. Too proud to sleep under my roof, him in his sable cloak and black steel. My wives give him big
cow eyes all the same." He turned his squint on the nearest of the women. "Gared says they were chasing
raiders. I told him, with a commander that green, best not catch 'em. Gared wasn't half-bad, for a crow.
Had less ears than me, that one. The 'bite took 'em, same as mine." Craster laughed. "Now I hear he got
no head neither. The 'bite do that too?"
Jon remembered a spray of red blood on white snow, and the way Theon Greyjoy had kicked the dead
man's head. The man was a deserter. On the way back to Winterfell, Jon and Robb had raced, and
found six direwolf pups in the snow. A thousand years ago.
"When Ser Waymar left you, where was he bound?"


Craster gave a shrug. "Happens I have better things to do than tend to the comings and goings of
crows." He drank a pull of beer and set the cup aside. "Had no good southron wine up here for a bear's
night. I could use me some wine, and a new axe. Mine's lost its bite, can't have that, I got me women to
protect." He gazed around at his scurrying wives.
"You are few here, and isolated," Mormont said. "If you like, I'll detail some men to escort you south to
the Wall."
The raven seemed to like the notion. "Wall," it screamed, spreading black wings like a high collar behind
Mormont's head.
Their host gave a nasty smile, showing a mouthful of broken brown teeth. "And what would we do there,
serve you at supper? We're free folk here. Craster serves no man."
"These are bad times to dwell alone in the wild. The cold winds are rising."
"Let them rise. My roots are sunk deep." Craster grabbed a passing woman by the wrist. "Tell him, wife.
Tell the Lord Crow how well content we are."
The woman licked at thin lips. "This is our place. Craster keeps us safe. Better to die free than live a
slave."
"Slave," muttered the raven.
Mormont leaned forward. "Every village we have passed has been abandoned. Yours are the first living
faces we've seen since we left the Wall. The people are gone . . . whether dead, fled, or taken, I could
not say. The animals as well. Nothing is left. And earlier, we found the bodies of two of Ben Stark's
rangers only a few leagues from the Wall. They were pale and cold, with black hands and black feet and
wounds that did not bleed. Yet when we took them back to Castle Black they rose in the night and
killed. One slew Ser Jaremy Rykker and the other came for me, which tells me that they remember some
of what they knew when they lived, but there was no human mercy left in them."
The woman's mouth hung open, a wet pink cave, but Craster only
gave a snort. "We've had no such troubles here . . . and I'll thank you not to tell such evil tales under my
roof. I'm a godly man, and the gods keep me safe. If wights come walking, I'll know how to send them
back to their graves. Though I could use me a sharp new axe." He sent his wife scurrying with a slap on
her leg and a shout of "More beer, and be quick about it."
"No trouble from the dead," Jarmen Buckwell said, "but what of the living, my lord? What of your king?"
"King!" cried Mormont's raven. "King, king, king."
"That Mance Rayder?" Craster spit into the fire. "King-beyond-theWall. What do free folk want with
kings?" He turned his squint on Mormont. "There's much I could tell you o' Rayder and his doings, if I
had a mind. This o' the empty villages, that's his work. You would have found this hall abandoned as
well, if I were a man to scrape to such. He sends a rider, tells me I must leave my own keep to come
grovel at his feet. I sent the man back, but kept his tongue. It's nailed to that wall there." He pointed.
"Might be that I could tell you where to seek Mance Rayder. If I had a mind." The brown smile again.
"But we'll have time enough for that. You'll be wanting to sleep beneath my roof, belike, and eat me out


of pigs."
"A roof would be most welcome, my lord," Mormont said. "We've had hard riding, and too much wet."
"Then you'll guest here for a night. No longer, I'm not that fond o' crows. The loft's for me and mine, but
you'll have all the floor you like. I've meat and beer for twenty, no more. The rest o' your black crows
can peck after their own corn."
"We've packed in our own supplies, my lord," said the Old Bear. "We should be pleased to share our
food and wine."
Craster wiped his drooping mouth with the back of a hairy hand. "I'll taste your wine, Lord Crow, that I
will. One more thing. Any man lays a hand on my wives, he loses the hand."
"Your roof, your rule," said Thoren Smallwood, and Lord Mormont nodded stiffly, though he looked
none too pleased.
"That's settled, then." Craster grudged them a grunt. "D'ya have a man can draw a map?"
"Sam Tarly can." ion pushed forward. "Sam loves maps."
Mormont beckoned him closer. "Send him here after he's eaten. Have him bring quill and parchment.
And find Tollett as well. Tell him to bring my axe. A guest gift for our host."
"Who's this one now?" Craster said before Jon could go. "He has the look of a Stark."
"My steward and squire, Jon Snow."
"A bastard, is it?" Craster looked Jon up and down. "Man wants to bed
a woman, seems like he ought to take her to wife. That's what I do." He shooed Jon off with a wave.
"Well, run and do your service, bastard, and see that axe is good and sharp now, I've no use for dull
steel."
Jon Snow bowed stiffly and took his leave. Ser Ottyn Wythers was coming in as he was leaving, and
they almost collided at the deerhide door. Outside, the rain seemed to have slackened. Tents had gone
up all over the compound. Jon could see the tops of others under the trees.
Dolorous Edd was feeding the horses. "Give the wildling an axe, why not?" He pointed out Mormont's
weapon, a shorthafted battle-axe with gold scrollwork inlaid on the black steel blade. "He'll give it back,
I vow. Buried in the Old Bear's skull, like as not. Why not give him all our axes, and our swords as well?
I mislike the way they clank and rattle as we ride. We'd travel faster without them, straight to hell's door.
Does it rain in hell, I wonder? Perhaps Craster would like a nice hat instead."
Jon smiled. "He wants an axe. And wine as well."
"See, the Old Bear's clever. if we get the wildling well and truly drunk, perhaps he'll only cut off an ear
when he tries to slay us with that axe. I have two ears but only one head."
"Smallwood says Craster is a friend to the Watch."


"Do you know the difference between a wildling who's a friend to the Watch and one who's not?" asked
the dour squire. "Our enemies leave our bodies for the crows and the wolves. Our friends bury us in
secret graves. I wonder how long that bear's been nailed up on that gate, and what Craster had there
before we came hallooing?" Edd looked at the axe doubtfully, the rain running down his long face. "Is it
dry in there?"
"Drier than out here."
"If I lurk about after, not too close to the fire, belike they'll take no note of me till morn. The ones under
his roof will be the first he murders, but at least we'll die dry."
Jon had to laugh. "Craster's one man. We're two hundred. I doubt he'll murder anyone."
"You cheer me," said Edd, sounding utterly morose. "And besides, there's much to be said for a good
sharp axe. I'd hate to be murdered with a maul. I saw a man hit in the brow with a maul once. Scarce
split the skin at all, but his head turned mushy and swelled up big as a gourd, only purply-red. A comely
man, but he died ugly. It's good that we're not giving them mauls." Edd walked away shaking his head,
his sodden black cloak shedding rain behind him.
Jon got the horses fed before he stopped to think of his own supper. He was wondering where to find
Sam when he heard a shout of fear. "Wolf!" He sprinted around the hall toward the cry, the earth sucking
at his boots. One of Craster's women was backed up against the mud-spattered wall of the keep. "Keep
away," she was shouting at Ghost. "You keep
away! " The direwolf had a rabbit in his mouth and another dead and bloody on the ground before him.
"Get it away, m'lord," she pleaded when she saw him.
"He won't hurt you." He knew at once what had happened; a wooden hutch, its slats shattered, lay on its
side in the wet grass. "He must have been hungry. We haven't seen much game." ion whistled. The
direwolf bolted down the rabbit, crunching the small bones between his teeth, and padded over to him.
The woman regarded them with nervous eyes. She was younger than he'd thought at first. A girl of
fifteen or sixteen years, he judged, dark hair plastered across a gaunt face by the falling rain, her bare feet
muddy to the ankles. The body under the sewn skins was showing in the early turns of pregnancy. "Are
you one of Craster's daughters?" he asked.
She put a hand over her belly. "Wife now." Edging away from the wolf, she knelt mournfully beside the
broken hutch. "I was going to breed them rabbits. There's no sheep left."
"The Watch will make good for them." Jon had no coin of his own, or he would have offered it to her . .
. though he was not sure what good a few coppers or even a silver piece would do her beyond the Wall.
"I'll speak to Lord Mormont on the morrow."
She wiped her hands on her skirt. "M'Iord-"
"I'm no lord."
But others had come crowding round, drawn by the woman's scream and the crash of the rabbit hutch.
"Don't you believe him, girl," called out Lark the Sisterman, a ranger mean as a cur. "That's Lord Snow
himself."


"Bastard of Winterfell and brother to kings," mocked Chett, who'd left his hounds to see what the
commotion was about.
"That wolf's looking at you hungry, girl," Lark said. "Might be it fancies that tender bit in your belly."
Jon was not amused. "You're scaring her."
"Warning her, more like." Chett's grin was as ugly as the boils that covered most of his face.
"We're not to talk to you," the girl remembered suddenly.
"Wait," Jon said, too late. She bolted, ran.
Lark made a grab for the second rabbit, but Ghost was quicker. When he bared his teeth, the Sisterman
slipped in the mud and went down on his bony butt. The others laughed. The direwolf took the rabbit in
his mouth and brought it to Jon.
"There was no call to scare the girl," he told them.
"We'll hear no scolds from you, bastard." Chett blamed Jon for the loss of his comfortable position with
Maester Aemon, and not without justice. If he had not gone to Aemon about Sam Tarly, Chett would still
be tending an old blind man instead of a pack of ill-tempered hunting hounds. "You may be the Lord
Commander's pet, but you're not the Lord Commander . . . and you wouldn't talk so bloody bold
without that monster of yours always about."
"I'll not fight a brother while we're beyond the Wall," Jon answered, his voice cooler than he felt.
Lark got to one knee. "He's afraid of you, Chett. On the Sisters, we have a name for them like him."
"I know all the names. Save your breath." He walked away, Ghost at his side. The rain had dwindled to
a thin drizzle by the time he reached the gate. Dusk would be on them soon, followed by another wet
dark dismal night. The clouds would hide moon and stars and Mormont's Torch, turning the woods black
as pitch. Every piss would be an adventure, if not quite of the sort Jon Snow had once envisioned.
Out under the trees, some rangers had found enough duff and dry wood to start a fire beneath a slanting
ridge of slate. Others had raised tents or made rude shelters by stretching their cloaks over low branches.
Giant had crammed himself inside the hollow of a dead oak. "How dye like my castle, Lord Snow?"
"It looks snug. You know where Sam is?"
"Keep on the way you were. If you come on Ser Ottyn's pavilion, you've gone too far." Giant smiled.
"Unless Sam's found him a tree too. What a tree that would be."
It was Ghost who found Sam in the end. The direwolf shot ahead like a quarrel from a crossbow. Under
an outcrop of rock that gave some small degree of shelter from the rain, Sam was feeding the ravens. His
boots squished when he moved. "My feet are soaked through," he admitted miserably. "When I climbed
off my horse, I stepped in a hole and went in up to my knees."
"Take off your boots and dry your stockings. I'll find some dry wood. If the ground's not wet under the
rock, we might be able to get a fire burning." Jon showed Sam the rabbit. "And we'll feast."


"Won't you be attending Lord Mormont in the hall?"
"No, but you will. The Old Bear wants you to map for him. Craster says he'll find Mance Rayder for us."
"Oh." Sam did not look anxious to meet Craster, even if it meant a warm fire.
"He said eat first, though. Dry your feet." Jon went to gather fuel, digging down under deadfalls for the
drier wood beneath and peeling back layers of sodden pine needles until he found likely kindling. Even
then, it seemed to take forever for a spark to catch. He hung his cloak from the rock to keep the rain off
his smoky little fire, making them a small snug alcove.
As he knelt to skin the rabbit, Sam pulled off his boots. "I think there's moss growing between my toes,"
he declared mournfully, wriggling the toes in question. "The rabbit will taste good. I don't even mind
about the blood and all." He looked away. "Well, only a little . . ."
Jon spitted the carcass, banked the fire with a pair of rocks, and balanced their meal atop them. The
rabbit had been a scrawny thing, but as it cooked it smelled like a king's feast. Other rangers gave them
envious looks. Even Ghost looked up hungrily, flames shining in his red eyes as he sniffed. "You had
yours before," Jon reminded him.
"Is Craster as savage as the rangers say?" Sam asked. The rabbit was a shade underdone, but tasted
wonderful. "What's his castle like?"
"A midden heap with a roof and a firepit." Jon told Sam what he had seen and heard in Craster's Keep.
By the time the telling was done, it was dark outside and Sam was licking his fingers. "That was good,
but now I'd like a leg of lamb. A whole leg, just for me, sauced with mint and honey and cloves. Did you
see any lambs?"
"There was a sheepfold, but no sheep."
"How does he feed all his men?"
"I didn't see any men. just Craster and his women and a few small girls. I wonder he's able to hold the
place. His defenses were nothing to speak of, only a muddy dike. You had better go up to the hall and
draw that map. Can you find the way?"
"If I don't fall in the mud." Sam struggled back into his boots, collected quill and parchment, and
shouldered out into the night, the rain pattering down on his cloak and floppy hat.
Ghost laid his head on his paws and went to sleep by the fire. Jon stretched out beside him, grateful for
the warmth. He was cold and wet, but not so cold and wet as he'd been a short time before. Perhaps
tonight the Old Bear will learn something that will lead us to Uncle Benjen.
He woke to the sight of his own breath misting in the cold morning air. When he moved, his bones
ached. Ghost was gone, the fire burnt out. Jon reached to pull aside the cloak he'd hung over the rock,
and found it stiff and frozen. He crept beneath it and stood up in a forest turned to crystal.
The pale pink light of dawn sparkled on branch and leaf and stone. Every blade of grass was carved
from emerald, every drip of water turned to diamond. Flowers and mushrooms alike wore coats of glass.


Even the mud puddles had a bright brown sheen. Through the shimmering greenery, the black tents of his
brothers were encased in a fine glaze of ice.
So there is magic beyond the Wall after all. He found himself thinking of his sisters, perhaps because
he'd dreamed of them last night. Sansa would call this an enchantment, and tears would fill her eyes at the
wonder of it, but Arya would run out laughing and shouting, wanting to touch it all.
"Lord Snow?" he heard. Soft and meek. He turned.
Crouched atop the rock that had sheltered him during the night was the rabbit keeper, wrapped in a
black cloak so large it drowned her. Sam's cloak, Jon realized at once. Why is she wearing Sam's cloak?
"The fat one told me I'd find you here, m'lord," she said.
"We ate the rabbit, if that's what you came for." The admission made him feel absurdly guilty.
"Old Lord Crow, him with the talking bird, he gave Craster a crossbow worth a hundred rabbits." Her
arms closed over the swell of her belly. "Is it true, m'lord? Are you brother to a king?"
"A half brother," he admitted. "I'm Ned Stark's bastard. My brother Robb is the King in the North. Why
are you here?"
"The fat one, that Sam, he said to see you. He give me his cloak, so no one would say I didn't belong."
"Won't Craster be angry with you?"
"My father drank overmuch of the Lord Crow's wine last night. He'll sleep most of the day." Her breath
frosted the air in small nervous puffs. "They say the king gives justice and protects the weak." She started
to climb off the rock, awkwardly, but the ice had made it slippery and her foot went out from under her.
Jon caught her before she could fall, and helped her safely down. The woman knelt on the icy ground.
"M'lord, I beg you-"
"Don't beg me anything. Go back to your hall, you shouldn't be here. We were commanded not to
speak to Craster's women."
"You don't have to speak with me, m'lord. just take me with you, when you go, that's all I ask."
All she asks, he thought. As if that were nothing.
"I'll . . . I'll be your wife, if you like. My father, he's got nineteen now, one less won't hurt him none."
"Black brothers are sworn never to take wives, don't you know that? And we're guests in your father's
hall besides."
"Not you," she said. "I watched. You never ate at his board, nor slept by his fire. He never gave you
guest-right, so you're not bound to him. It's for the baby I have to go."
"I don't even know your name."
"Gilly, he called me. For the gillyflower."


"That's pretty." He remembered Sansa telling him once that he should say that whenever a lady told him
her name. He could not help the girl, but perhaps the courtesy would please her. "Is it Craster who
frightens you, Gilly?"
"For the baby, not for me. If it's a girl, that's not so bad, she'll grow a
few years and he'll marry her. But Nella says it's to be a boy, and she's had six and knows these things.
He gives the boys to the gods. Come the white cold, he does, and of late it comes more often. That's
why he started giving them sheep, even though he has a taste for mutton. Only now the sheep's gone too.
Next it will be dogs, till She lowered her eyes and stroked her belly.
"What gods?" Jon was remembering that they'd seen no boys in Craster's Keep, nor men either, save
Craster himself.
"The cold gods," she said. "The ones in the night. The white shadows."
And suddenly Jon was back in the Lord Commander's Tower again. A severed hand was climbing his
calf and when he pried it off with the point of his longsword, it lay writhing, fingers opening and closing.
The dead man rose to his feet, blue eyes shining in that gashed and swollen face. Ropes of torn flesh hung
from the great wound in his belly, yet there was no blood.
"What color are their eyes?" he asked her.
"Blue. As bright as blue stars, and as cold."
She has seen them, he thought. Craster lied.
"Will you take me? just so far as the Wall-"
"We do not ride for the Wall. We ride north, after Mance Rayder and these Others, these white
shadows and their wights. We seek them, Gilly. Your babe would not be safe with us."
Her fear was plain on her face. "You will come back, though. When your warring's done, you'll pass this
way again."
"We may." If any of us still live. "That's for the Old Bear to say, the one you call the Lord Crow. I'm
only his squire. I do not choose the road I ride."
"No." He could hear the defeat in her voice. "Sorry to be of trouble, m'lord. I only . . . they said the king
keeps people safe, and I thought . . ." Despairing, she ran, Sam's cloak flapping behind her like great
black wings.
Jon watched her go, his joy in the morning's brittle beauty gone. Damn her, he thought resentfully, and
damn Sam twice for sending her to me. What did he think I could do for her? We're here to fight
wildlings, not save them.
Other men were crawling from their shelters, yawning and stretching. The magic was already faded, icy
brightness turning back to common dew in the light of the rising sun. Someone had gotten a fire started;
he could smell woodsmoke drifting through the trees, and the smoky scent of bacon. Jon took down his
cloak and snapped it against the rock, shattering the thin crust of ice that had formed in the night, then
gathered up Longclaw and shrugged an arm through a shoulder strap. A few yards


away he made water into a frozen bush, his piss steaming in the cold air and melting the ice wherever it
fell. Afterward he laced up his black wool breeches and followed the smells.
Grenn and Dywen were among the brothers who had gathered round the fire. Hake handed Jon a
hollow heel of bread filled with burnt bacon and chunks of salt fish warmed in bacon grease. He wolfed it
down while listening to Dywen boast of having three of Craster's women during the night.
"You did not," Grenn said, scowling. "I would have seen."
Dywen whapped him up alongside his ear with the back of his hand. "You? Seen? You're blind as
Maester Aemon. You never even saw that bear."
"What bear? Was there a bear?"
"There's always a bear," declared Dolorous Edd in his usual tone of gloomy resignation. "One killed my
brother when I was young. Afterward it wore his teeth around its neck on a leather thong. And they were
good teeth too, better than mine. I've had nothing but trouble with my teeth."
"Did Sam sleep in the hall last night?" Jon asked him.
"I'd not call it sleeping. The ground was hard, the rushes ill-smelling, and my brothers snore frightfully.
Speak of bears if you will, none ever growled so fierce as Brown Bernarr. I was warm, though. Some
dogs crawled atop me during the night. My cloak was almost dry when one of them pissed in it. Or
perhaps it was Brown Bernarr. Have you noticed that the rain stopped the instant I had a roof above
me? It will start again now that I'm back out. Gods and dogs alike delight to piss on me."
"I'd best go see to Lord Mormont," said Jon.
The rain might have stopped, but the compound was still a morass of shallow lakes and slippery mud.
Black brothers were folding their tents, feeding their horses, and chewing on strips of salt beef. Jarman
Buckwell's scouts were tightening the girths on their saddles before setting out. "Jon," Buckwell greeted
him from horseback. "Keep a good edge on that bastard sword of yours. We'll be needing it soon
enough."
Craster's hall was dim after daylight. Inside, the night's torches had burned low, and it was hard to know
that the sun had risen. Lord Mormont's raven was the first to spy him enter. Three lazy flaps of its great
black wings, and it perched atop Longclaw's hilt. "Corn?" It nipped at a strand of Jon's hair.
"Ignore that wretched beggar bird, Jon, it's just had half my bacon." The Old Bear sat at Craster's
board, breaking his fast with the other officers on fried bread, bacon, and sheepgut sausage. Craster's
new axe was on the table its gold inlay gleaming faintly in the torchlight. its owner was sprawled
unconscious in the sleeping loft above, but the
women were all up, moving about and serving. "What sort of day do we have? "
"Cold, but the rain has stopped."
"Very good. See that my horse is saddled and ready. I mean for us to ride within the hour. Have you
eaten? Craster serves plain fare, but filling."


I will not eat Graster's food, he decided suddenly. "I broke my fast with the men, my lord." Jon shooed
the raven off Longclaw. The bird hopped back to Mormont's shoulder, where it promptly shat. "You
might have done that on Snow instead of saving it for me," the Old Bear grumbled. The raven quorked.
He found Sam behind the hall, standing with Gilly at the broken rabbit hutch. She was helping him back
into his cloak, but when she saw Jon she stole away. Sam gave him a look of wounded reproach. "I
thought you would help her."
"And how was I to do that?" Jon said sharply. "Take her with us, wrapped up in your cloak? We were
commanded not to-"
"I know," said Sam guiltily, "but she was afraid. I know what it is to be afraid. I told her . . ." He
swallowed.
"What? That we'd take her with us?"
Sam's fat face blushed a deep red. "On the way home." He could not meet Jon's eyes. "She's going to
have a baby."
"Sam, have you taken leave of all your sense? We may not even return this way. And if we do, do you
think the Old Bear is going to let you pack off one of Craster's wives?"
"I thought . . . maybe by then I could think of a way
"I have no time for this, I have horses to groom and saddle." Jon walked away as confused as he was
angry. Sam's heart was a big as the rest of him, but for all his reading he could be as thick as Grenn at
times. It was impossible, and dishonorable besides. So why do I feel so ashamed?
Jon took his accustomed position at Mormont's side as the Night's Watch streamed out past the skulls
on Craster's gate. They struck off north and west along a crooked game trail. Melting ice dripped down
all about them, a slower sort of rain with its own soft music. North of the compound, the brook was in
full spate, choked with leaves and bits of wood, but the scouts had found where the ford lay and the
column was able to splash across. The water ran as high as a horse's belly. Ghost swam, emerging on the
bank with his white fur dripping brown. When he shook, spraying mud and water in all directions,
Mormont said nothing, but on his shoulder the raven screeched.
"My lord," Jon said quietly as the wood closed in around them once more. "Craster has no sheep. Nor
any sons."
Mormont made no answer.
"At Winterfell one of the serving women told us stories," Jon went on. "She used to say that there were
wildlings who would lay with the Others to birth half-human children."
"Hearth tales. Does Craster seem less than human to you?"
In half a hundred ways. "He gives his sons to the wood."
A long silence. Then: "Yes." And "Yes," the raven muttered, strutting. "Yes, yes, yes."
"You knew?"


"Smallwood told me. Long ago. All the rangers know, though few will talk of it."
"Did my uncle know?"
"All the rangers," Mormont repeated. "You think I ought to stop him. Kill him if need be." The Old Bear
sighed. "Were it only that he wished to rid himself of some mouths, I'd gladly send Yoren or Conwys to
collect the boys. We could raise them to the black and the Watch would be that much the stronger. But
the wildlings serve crueler gods than you or I. These boys are Craster's offerings. His prayers, if you
will."
His wives must offer different prayers, Jon thought.
"How is it you came to know this?" the Old Bear asked him. "From one of Craster's wives?"
"Yes, my lord," Jon confessed. "I would sooner not tell you which. She was frightened and wanted
help."
"The wide world is full of people wanting help, Jon. Would that some could find the courage to help
themselves. Craster sprawls in his loft even now, stinking of wine and lost to sense. On his board below
lies a sharp new axe. Were it me, Id name it 'Answered Prayer' and make an end."
Yes. Jon thought of Gilly. She and her sisters. They were nineteen, and Craster was one, but . . .
"Yet it would be an ill day for us if Craster died. Your uncle could tell you of the times Craster's Keep
made the difference between life and death for our rangers."
"My father . . ." He hesitated.
"Go on, Jon. Say what you would say."
"My father once told me that some men are not worth having," Jon finished. "A bannerman who is brutal
or unjust dishonors his liege lord as well as himself."
"Craster is his own man. He has sworn us no vows. Nor is he subject to our laws. Your heart is noble,
Jon, but learn a lesson here. We cannot set the world to rights. That is not our purpose. The Night's
Watch has other wars to fight."
Other wars. Yes. I must remember. "Jarman Buckwell said I might have need of my sword soon."
"Did he?" Mormont did not seem pleased. "Craster said much and more last night, and confirmed
enough of my fears to condemn me to a sleepless night on his floor. Mance Rayder is gathering his
people together in the Frostfangs. That's why the villages are empty. It is the same tale that Ser Denys
Mallister had from the wildling his men captured in the Gorge, but Craster has added the where, and that
makes all the difference."
"Is he making a city, or an army?"
"Now, that is the question. How many wildlings are there? How many men of fighting age? No one
knows with certainty. The Frostfangs are cruel, inhospitable, a wilderness of stone and ice. They will not
long sustain any great number of people. I can see only one purpose in this gathering. Mance Rayder


means to strike south, into the Seven Kingdoms."
"Wildlings have invaded the realm before." Jon had heard the tales from Old Nan and Maester Luwin
both, back at Winterfell. "Raymun Redbeard led them south in the time of my grandfather's grandfather,
and before him there was a king named Bael the Bard."
"Aye, and long before them came the Horned Lord and the brother kings Gendel and Gorne, and in
ancient days Joramun, who blew the Horn of Winter and woke giants from the earth. Each man of them
broke his strength on the Wall, or was broken by the power of Winterfell on the far side . . . but the
Night's Watch is only a shadow of what we were, and who remains to oppose the wildlings besides us?
The Lord of Winterfell is dead, and his heir has marched his strength south to fight the Lannisters. The
wildlings may never again have such a chance as this. I knew Mance Rayder, Jon. He is an oathbreaker,
yes . . . but he has eyes to see, and no man has ever dared to name him faintheart."
"What will we do?" asked Jon.
"Find him," said Mormont. "Fight him. Stop him."
Three hundred, thought Jon, against the fury of the wild. His fingers opened and closed.
CHAPTER 24
THEON
She was undeniably a beauty. But your first is always beautiful, Theon Greyjoy thought.
"Now there's a pretty grin," a woman's voice said behind him. "The lordling likes the look of her, does
he?"
Theon turned to give her an appraising glance. He liked what he saw. Ironborn, he knew at a glance;
lean and longlegged, with black hair cut short, wind-chafed skin, strong sure hands, a dirk at her belt.
Her nose was too big and too sharp for her thin face, but her smile made up for it. He judged her a few
years older than he was, but no more than five-andtwenty. She moved as if she were used to a deck
beneath her feet.
"Yes, she's a sweet sight," he told her, "though not half so sweet as you."
"Oho." She grinned. "I'd best be careful. This lordling has a honeyed tongue."
"Taste it and see."
"Is it that way, then?" she said, eyeing him boldly. There were women on the iron Islands-not many, but
a few-who crewed the longships along with their men, and it was said that salt and sea changed them,
gave them a man's appetites. "Have you been that long at sea, lordling? Or were there no women where
you came from?"
"Women enough, but none like you."


"And how would you know what I'm like?"
"My eyes can see your face. My ears can hear your laughter. And my cock's gone hard as a mast for
you."
The woman stepped close and pressed a hand to the front of his breeches. "Well, you're no liar," she
said, giving him a squeeze through the cloth. "How bad does it hurt?"
"Fiercely."
"Poor lordling." She released him and stepped back. "As it happens, I'm a woman wed, and new with
child."
"The gods are good," Theon said. "No chance I'd give you a bastard that way."
"Even so, my man wouldn't thank you."
"No, but you might."
"And why would that be? I've had lords before. They're made the same as other men."
"Have you ever had a prince?" he asked her. "When you're wrinkled and grey and your teats hang past
your belly, you can tell your children's children that once you loved a king."
"Oh, is it love we're talking now? And here I thought it was just cocks and cunts."
"Is it love you fancy?" He'd decided that he liked this wench, whoever she was; her sharp wit was a
welcome respite from the damp gloom of Pyke. "Shall I name my longship after you, and play you the
high harp, and keep you in a tower room in my castle with only jewels to wear, like a princess in a song?"
"You ought to name your ship after me," she said, ignoring all the rest. "It was me who built her."
"Sigrin built her. My lord father's shipwright."
"I'm Esgred. Ambrode's daughter, and wife to Sigrin."
He had not known that Ambrode had a daughter, or Sigrin a wife . . . but he'd met the younger
shipwright only once, and the older one he scarce remembered. "You're wasted on Sigrin."
"Oho. Sigrin told me this sweet ship is wasted on you."
Theon bristled. "Do you know who I am?"
"Prince Theon of House Greyjoy. Who else? Tell me true, my lord, how well do you love her, this new
maid of yours? Sigrin will want to know."
The longship was so new that she still smelled of pitch and resin. His uncle Aeron would bless her on the
morrow, but Theon had ridden over from Pyke to get a look at her before she was launched. She was
not so large as Lord Balon's own Great Kraken or his uncle Victarion's Iron Victory, but she looked
swift and sweet, even sitting in her wooden cradle on the strand; lean black hull a hundred feet long, a


single tall mast,
fifty long oars, deck enough for a hundred men . . . and at the prow, the great iron ram in the shape of an
arrowhead. "Sigrin did me good service," he admitted. "Is she as fast as she looks?"
"Faster-for a master that knows how to handle her."
"It has been a few years since I sailed a ship." And I've never captained one, if truth be told. "Still, I'm a
Greyjoy, and an ironman. The sea is in my blood."
"And your blood will be in the sea, if you sail the way you talk," she told him.
"I would never mistreat such a fair maiden."
"Fair maiden?" She laughed. "She's a sea bitch, this one."
"There, and now you've named her. Sea Bitch."
That amused her; he could see the sparkle in her dark eyes. "And you said you'd name her after me,"
she said in a voice of wounded reproach.
"I did." He caught her hand. "Help me, my lady. in the green lands, they believe a woman with child
means good fortune for any man who beds her."
"And what would they know about ships in the green lands? Or women, for that matter? Besides, I think
you made that up."
"If I confess, will you still love me?"
"Still? When have I ever loved you?"
"Never," he admitted, "but I am trying to repair that lack, my sweet Esgred. The wind is cold. Come
aboard my ship and let me warm you. On the morrow my uncle Aeron will pour seawater over her prow
and mumble a prayer to the Drowned God, but Id sooner bless her with the milk of my loins, and yours."
"The Drowned God might not take that kindly."
"Bugger the Drowned God. If he troubles us, I'll drown him again. We're off to war within a fortnight.
Would you send me into battle all sleepless with longing?"
"Gladly."
"A cruel maid. My ship is well named. If I steer her onto the rocks in my distraction, you'll have yourself
to blame."
"Do you plan to steer with this?" Esgred brushed the front of his breeches once more, and smiled as a
finger traced the iron outline of his manhood.
"Come back to Pyke with me," he said suddenly, thinking, What will Lord Balon say? And why should I
care? I am a man grown, if I want to bring a wench to bed it is no one's business but my own.


"And what would I do in Pyke?" Her hand stayed where it was.
"My father will feast his captains tonight." He had them to feast every night, while he waited for the last
stragglers to arrive, but Theon saw no need to tell all that.
"Would you make me your captain for the night, my lord prince?" She had the wickedest smile he'd ever
seen on a woman.
"I might. If I knew you'd steer me safe into port."
"Well, I know which end of the oar goes in the sea, and there's no one better with ropes and knots."
One-handed, she undid the lacing of his breeches, then grinned and stepped lightly away from him. "A
pity I'm a woman wed, and new with child."
Flustered, Theon laced himself back up. "I need to start back to the castle. if you do not come with me,
I may lose my way for grief, and all the islands would be poorer."
"We couldn't have that . . . but I have no horse, my lord."
"You could take my squire's mount."
"And leave your poor squire to walk all the way to Pyke?"
"Share mine, then."
"You'd like that well enough." The smile again. "Now, would I be behind you, or in front?"
"You would be wherever you liked."
"I like to be on top."
Where has this wench been all my life? "My father's hall is dim and dank. It needs Esgred to make the
fires blaze."
"The lordling has a honeyed tongue."
"Isn't that where we began?"
She threw up her hands. "And where we end. Esgred is yours, sweet prince. Take me to your castle.
Let me see your proud towers rising from the sea."
"I left my horse at the inn. Come." They walked down the strand together, and when Theon took her
arm, she did not pull away. He liked the way she walked; there was a boldness to it, part saunter and
part sway, that suggested she would be just as bold beneath the blankets.
Lordsport was as crowded as he'd ever seen it, swarming with the crews of the longships that lined the
pebbled shore and rode at anchor well out past the breakwater. Ironmen did not bend their knees often
nor easily, but Theon noted that oarsmen and townfolk alike grew quiet as they passed, and
acknowledged him with respectful bows of the head. They have finally learned who I am, he thought.
And past time too.


Lord Goodbrother of Great Wyk had come in the night before with his main strength, near forty
longships. His men were everywhere, conspicuous in their striped goat's hair sashes. It was said about
the inn that Otter Gimpknee's whores were being fucked bowlegged by beardless boys in sashes. The
boys were welcome to them so far as Theon was concerned. A poxier den of slatterns he hoped he'd
never see. His present companion was more to his taste. That she was wed to his father's shipwright and
pregnant to boot only made her more intriguing.
"Has my lord prince begun choosing his crew?" Esgred asked as they made their way toward the stable.
"Ho, Bluetooth," she shouted to a passing seafarer, a tall man in bearskin vest and raven-winged helm.
"How fares your bride?"
"Fat with child, and talking of twins."
"So soon?" Esgred smiled that wicked smile. "You got your oar in the water quickly."
"Aye, and stroked and stroked and stroked," roared the man,
"A big man," Theon observed. "Bluetooth, was it? Should I choose him for my Sea Bitch?"
"Only if you mean to insult him. Bluetooth has a sweet ship of his own."
"I have been too long away to know one man from another," Theon admitted. He'd looked for a few of
the friends he'd played with as a boy, but they were gone, dead, or grown into strangers. "My uncle
Victarion has loaned me his own steersman."
"Rymolf Stormdrunk? A good man, so long as he's sober." She saw more faces she knew, and called
out to a passing trio, "Uller, Qarl. Where's your brother, Skyte?"
"The Drowned God needed a strong oarsman, I fear," replied the stocky man with the white streak in his
beard.
"What he means is, Eldiss drank too much wine and his fat belly burst," said the pink-cheeked youth
beside him.
"What's dead may never die," Esgred said.
"What's dead may never die."
Theon muttered the words with them. "You seem well known," he said to the woman when the men had
passed on.
"Every man loves the shipwright's wife. He had better, lest he wants his ship to sink. If you need men to
pull your oars, you could do worse than those three."
"Lordsport has no lack of strong arms." Theon had given the matter no little thought. It was fighters he
wanted, and men who would be loyal to him, not to his lord father or his uncles. He was playing the part
of a dutiful young prince for the moment, while he waited for Lord Balon to reveal the fullness of his
plans. If it turned out that he did not like those plans or his part in them, however, well . . .
"Strength is not enough. A longship's oars must move as one if you would have her best speed. Choose
men who have rowed together before, if you're wise."


"Sage counsel. Perhaps you'd help me choose them." Let her believe I want her wisdom, women fancy
that.
"I may. If you treat me kindly."
"How else?"
Theon quickened his stride as they neared the Myraham, rocking high and empty by the quay. Her
captain had tried to sail a fortnight past, but Lord Balon would not permit it. None of the merchantmen
that called at Lordsport had been allowed to depart again; his father wanted no word of the hosting to
reach the mainland before he was ready to strike.
"Milord," a plaintive voice called down from the forecastle of the merchanter. The captain's daughter
leaned over the rail, gazing after him. Her father had forbidden her to come ashore, but whenever Theon
came to Lordsport he spied her wandering forlornly about the deck. "Milord, a moment," she called after
him. "As it please milord . . ."
"Did she?" Esgred asked as Theon hurried her past the cog. "Please milord?"
He saw no sense in being coy with this one. "For a time. Now she wants to be my salt wife."
"Oho. Well, she'd profit from some salting, no doubt. Too soft and bland, that one. Or am I wrong?"
"You're not wrong." Soft and bland. Precisely. How had she known?
He had told Wex to wait at the inn. The common room was so crowded that Theon had to push his way
through the door. Not a seat was to be had at bench nor table. Nor did he see his squire. "Wex, - he
shouted over the din and clatter. If he's up with one of those poxy whores, I'll strip the hide off him, he
was thinking when he finally spied the boy, dicing near the hearth . . . and winning too, by the look of the
pile of coins before him.
"Time to go," Theon announced. When the boy paid him no mind, he seized him by the ear and pulled
him from the game. Wex grabbed up a fistful of coppers and came along without a word. That was one
of the things Theon liked best about him. Most squires have loose tongues, but Wex had been born
dumb . . . which didn't seem to keep him from being clever as any twelve-year-old had a right to be. He
was a baseborn son of one of Lord Botley's half brothers. Taking him as squire had been part of the
price Theon had paid for his horse.
When Wex saw Esgred, his eyes went round. You'd think he'd never seen a woman before, Theon
thought. "Esgred will be riding with me back to Pyke. Saddle the horses, and be quick about it."
The boy had ridden in on a scrawny little garron from Lord Balon's stable, but Theon's mount was quite
another sort of beast. "Where did you find that hellhorse?" Esgred asked when she saw him, but from the
way she laughed he knew she was impressed.
"Lord Botley bought him in Lannisport a year past, but he proved to be too much horse for him, so
Botley was pleased to sell." The Iron Islands were too sparse and rocky for breeding good horses. Most
of the islanders were indifferent riders at best, more comfortable on the deck of a longship
than in the saddle. Even the lords rode garrons or shaggy Harlaw ponies, and ox carts were more


common than drays. The smallfolk too poor to own either one pulled their own plows through the thin,
stony soil.
But Theon had spent ten years in Winterfell, and did not intend to go to war without a good mount
beneath him. Lord Botley's misjudgment was his good fortune: a stallion with a temper as black as his
hide, larger than a courser if not quite so big as most destriers. As Theon was not quite so big as most
knights, that suited him admirably. The animal had fire in his eyes. When he'd met his new owner, he'd
pulled back his lips and tried to bite off his face.
"Does he have a name?" Esgred asked Theon as he mounted.
"Smiler." He gave her a hand, and pulled her up in front of him, where he could put his arms around her
as they rode. "I knew a man once who told me that I smiled at the wrong things."
"Do you?"
"Only by the lights of those who smile at nothing." He thought of his father and his uncle Aeron.
"Are you smiling now, my lord prince?"
"Oh, yes." Theon reached around her to take the reins. She was almost of a height with him. Her hair
could have used a wash and she had a faded pink scar on her pretty neck, but he liked the smell of her,
salt and sweat and woman.
The ride back to Pyke promised to be a good deal more interesting than the ride down had been.
When they were well beyond Lordsport, Theon put a hand on her breast. Esgred reached up and
plucked it away. "Id keep both hands on the reins, or this black beast of yours is like to fling us both off
and kick us to death."
"I broke him of that." Amused, Theon behaved himself for a while, chatting amiably of the weather (grey
and overcast, as it had been since he arrived, with frequent rains) and telling her of the men he'd killed in
the Whispering Wood. When he reached the part about coming that close to the Kingslayer himself, he
slid his hand back up to where it had been. Her breasts were small, but he liked the firmness of them.
"You don't want to do that, my lord prince."
"Oh, but I do." Theon gave her a squeeze.
"Your squire is watching you."
"Let him. He'll never speak of it, I swear."
Esgred pried his fingers off her breast. This time she kept him firmly prisoned. She had strong hands.
"I like a woman with a good tight grip."
She snorted. "I'd not have thought it, by that wench on the waterfront."
"You must not judge me by her. She was the only woman on the ship."


"Tell me of your father. Will he welcome me kindly to his castle?"
"Why should he? He scarcely welcomed me, his own blood, the heir to Pyke and the Iron Islands."
"Are you?" she asked mildly. "It's said that you have uncles, brothers, a sister."
"My brothers are long dead, and my sister . . . well, they say Asha's favorite gown is a chainmail
hauberk that hangs down past her knees, with boiled leather smallclothes beneath. Men's garb won't
make her a man, though. I'll make a good marriage alliance with her once we've won the war, if I can find
a man to take her. As I recall, she had a nose like a vulture's beak, a ripe crop of pimples, and no more
chest than a boy."
"You can marry off your sister," Esgred observed, "but not your uncles."
"My uncles Theon's claim took precedence over those of his father's three brothers, but the woman had
touched on a sore point nonetheless. in the islands it was scarce unheard of for a strong, ambitious uncle
to dispossess a weak nephew of his rights, and usually murder him in the bargain. But I am not weak,
Theon told himself, and I mean to be stronger yet by the time my father dies. "My uncles pose no threat
to me," he declared. "Aeron is drunk on seawater and sanctity. He lives only for his god-"
"His god? Not yours?"
"Mine as well. What is dead can never die." He smiled thinly. "If I make pious noises as required,
Damphair will give me no trouble. And my uncle Victarion-"
"Lord Captain of the Iron Fleet, and a fearsome warrior. I have heard them sing of him in the alehouses."
"During my lord father's rebellion, he sailed into Lannisport with my uncle Euron and burned the
Larmister fleet where it lay at anchor," Theon recalled. "The plan was Euron's, though. Victarion is like
some great grey bullock, strong and tireless and dutiful, but not like to win any races. No doubt, he'll
serve me as loyally as he has served my lord father. He has neither the wits nor the ambition to plot
betrayal."
"Euron Croweye has no lack of cunning, though. I've heard men say terrible things of that one."
Theon shifted his seat. "My uncle Euron has not been seen in the islands for close on two years. He may
be dead." If so, it might be for the best. Lord Balon's eldest brother had never given up the Old Way,
even
for a day. His Silence, with its black sails and dark red hull, was infamous in every port from Ibben to
Asshai, it was said.
"He may be dead," Esgred agreed, "and if he lives, why, he has spent so long at sea, he'd be half a
stranger here. The ironborn would never seat a stranger in the Seastone Chair."
"I suppose not," Theon replied, before it occurred to him that some would call him a stranger as well.
The thought made him frown. Ten years is a long while, but I am back now, and my father is far from
dead. I have time to prove myself.
He considered fondling Esgred's breast again, but she would probably only take his hand away, and all
this talk of his uncles had dampened his ardor somewhat. Time enough for such play at the castle, in the


privacy of his chambers. "I will speak to Helya when we reach Pyke, and see that you have an honored
place at the feast," he said. "I must sit on the dais, at my father's right hand, but I will come down and join
you when he leaves the hall. He seldom lingers long. He has no belly for drink these days."
"A grievous thing when a great man grows old."
"Lord Balon is but the father of a great man."
"A modest lordling."
"Only a fool humbles himself when the world is so full of men eager to do that job for him." He kissed
her lightly on the nape of her neck.
"What shall I wear to this great feast?" She reached back and pushed his face away.
"I'll ask Helya to garb you. One of my lady mother's gowns might do. She is off on Harlaw, and not
expected to return."
"The cold winds have worn her away, I hear. Will you not go see her? Harlaw is only a day's sail, and
surely Lady Greyjoy yearns for a last sight of her son."
"Would that I could. I am kept too busy here. My father relies on me, now that I am returned. Come
peace, perhaps
"Your coming might bring her peace."
"Now you sound a woman," Theon complained.
"I confess, I am . . . and new with child."
Somehow that thought excited him. "So you say, but your body shows no signs of it. How shall it be
proven? Before I believe you, I shall need to see your breasts grow ripe, and taste your mother's milk."
"And what will my husband say to this? Your father's own sworn man and servant?"
"We'll give him so many ships to build, he'll never know you've left him."
She laughed. "It's a cruel lordling who's seized me. If I promise you that one day you may watch my
babe get suck, will you tell me more of
your war, Theon of House Greyjoy? There are miles and mountains still ahead of us, and I would hear of
this wolf king you served, and the golden lions he fights."
Ever anxious to please her, Theon obliged. The rest of the long ride passed swiftly as he filled her pretty
head with tales of Winterfell and war. Some of the things he said astonished him. She is easy to talk to,
gods praise her, he reflected. I feel as though I've known her for years. If the wench's pillow play is half
the equal of her wit, I'll need to keep her . . . He thought of Sigrin the Shipwright, a thick-bodied,
thick-witted man, flaxen hair already receding from a pimpled brow, and shook his head. A waste. A
most tragic waste.
It seemed scarcely any time at all before the great curtain wall of Pyke loomed up before them.


The gates were open. Theon put his heels into Smiler and rode through at a brisk trot. The hounds were
barking wildly as he helped Esgred dismount. Several came bounding up, tails wagging. They shot
straight past him and almost bowled the woman over, leaping all around her, yapping and licking. "Off,"
Theon shouted, aiming an ineffectual kick at one big brown bitch, but Esgred was laughing and wrestling
with them.
A stableman came pounding up after the dogs. "Take the horse," Theon commanded him, "and get these
damn dogs away-"
The lout paid him no mind. His face broke into a huge gap-toothed smile and he said, "Lady Asha.
You're back."
"Last night," she said. "I sailed from Great Wyk with Lord Goodbrother, and spent the night at the inn.
My little brother was kind enough to let me ride with him from Lordsport." She kissed one of the dogs on
the nose and grinned at Theon.
All he could do was stand and gape at her. Asha. No. She cannot be Asha. He realized suddenly that
there were two Ashas in his head. One was the little girl he had known. The other, more vaguely
imagined, looked something like her mother. Neither looked a bit like this . . . this . . . this . * ,
"The pimples went when the breasts came," she explained while she tussled with a dog, "but I kept the
vulture's beak."
Theon found his voice. "Why didn't you tell me?"
Asha let go of the hound and straightened. "I wanted to see who you were first. And I did." She gave
him a mocking half bow. "And now, little brother, pray excuse me. I need to bathe and dress for the
feast. I wonder if I still have that chainmail gown I like to wear over my boiled leather smallclothes? " She
gave him that evil grin, and crossed the bridge with that walk he'd liked so well, half saunter and half
sway.
When Theon turned away, Wex was smirking at him. He gave the boy
a clout on the ear. "That's for enjoying this so much." And another, harder. "And that's for not warning
me. Next time, grow a tongue."
His own chambers in the Guest Keep had never seemed so chilly, though the thralls had left a brazier
burning. Theon kicked his boots off, let his cloak fall to the floor, and poured himself a cup of wine,
remembering a gawky girl with knob knees and pimples. She unlaced my breeches, he thought, outraged,
and she said . . . oh, gods, and I said . . . He groaned. He could not possibly have made a more appalling
fool of himself.
No, he thought then. She was the one who made me a fool. The evil bitch must have enjoyed every
moment of it. And the way she kept reaching for my cock . . .
He took his cup and went to the window seat, where he sat drinking and watching the sea while the sun
darkened over Pyke. I have no place here, he thought, and Asha is the reason, may the Others take her!
The water below turned from green to grey to black. By then he could hear distant music, and he knew it
was time to change for the feast.


Theon chose plain boots and plainer clothes, somber shades of black and grey to fit his mood. No
ornament; he had nothing bought with iron. I might have taken something off that wildling I killed to save
Bran Stark, but he had nothing worth the taking. That's my cursed luck, I kill the poor.
The long smoky hall was crowded with his father's lords and captains when Theon entered, near four
hundred of them. Dagmer Cleftjaw had not yet returned from Old Wyk with the Stonehouses and
Drumms, but all the rest were there-Harlaws from Harlaw, Blacktydes from Blacktyde, Sparrs, Merlyns,
and Goodbrothers from Great Wyk, Saltcliffes and Sunderlies from Saltcliffe, and Botleys and Wynches
from the other side of Pyke. The thralls were pouring ale, and there was music, fiddles and skins and
drums. Three burly men were doing the finger dance, spinning short-hafted axes at each other. The trick
was to catch the axe or leap over it without missing a step. It was called the finger dance because it
usually ended when one of the dancers lost one . . . or two, or five.
Neither the dancers nor the drinkers took much note of Theon Greyjoy as he strode to the dais. Lord
Balon occupied the Seastone Chair, carved in the shape of a great kraken from an immense block of oily
black stone. Legend said that the First Men had found it standing on the shore of Old Wyk when they
came to the Iron Islands. To the left of the high seat were Theon's uncles. Asha was ensconced at his
right hand, in the place of honor. "You come late, Theon," Lord Balon observed.
"I ask your pardon." Theon took the empty seat beside Asha. Leaning close, he hissed in her ear,
"You're in my place."
She turned to him with innocent eyes. "Brother, surely you are mistaken. Your place is at Winterfell."
Her smile cut. "And where are all your pretty clothes? I heard you fancied silk and velvet against your
skin." She was in soft green wool herself, simply cut, the fabric clinging to the slender lines of her body.
"Your hauberk must have rusted away, sister," he threw back. "A great pity. I'd like to see you all in
iron."
Asha only laughed. "You may yet, little brother . . . if you think your Sea Bitch can keep up with my
Black Wind." One of their father's thralls came near, bearing a flagon of wine. "Are you drinking ale or
wine tonight, Theon?" She leaned over close. "Or is it still a taste of my mother's milk you thirst for?"
He flushed. "Wine," he told the thrall. Asha turned away and banged on the table, shouting for ale.
Theon hacked a loaf of bread in half, hollowed out a trencher, and summoned a cook to fill it with fish
stew. The smell of the thick cream made him a little ill, but he forced himself to eat some. He'd drunk
enough wine to float him through two meals. If I retch, it will be on her. "Does Father know that you've
married his shipwright?" he asked his sister.
"No more than Sigrin does." She gave a shrug. "Esgred was the first ship he built. He named her after his
mother. I would be hard-pressed to say which he loves best."
"Every word you spoke to me was a lie."
"Not every word. Remember when I told you I like to be on top?" Asha grinned.
That only made him angrier. "All that about being a woman wed, and new with child . . ."
"Oh, that part was true enough." Asha leapt to her feet. "Rolfe, here," she shouted down at one of the
finger dancers, holding up a hand. He saw her, spun, and suddenly an axe came flying from his hand, the


blade gleaming as it tumbled end over end through the torchlight. Theon had time for a choked gasp
before Asha snatched the axe from the air and slammed it down into the table, splitting his trencher in two
and splattering his mantle with drippings. "There's my lord husband." His sister reached down inside her
gown and drew a dirk from between her breasts. "And here's my sweet suckling babe."
He could not imagine how he looked at that moment, but suddenly Theon Greyjoy realized that the
Great Hall was ringing with laughter, all of it at him. Even his father was smiling, gods be damned, and his
uncle Victarion chuckled aloud. The best response he could summon was a queasy grin. We shall see
who is laughing when all this is done, bitch.
Asha wrenched the axe out of the table and flung it back down at the
dancers, to whistles and loud cheers. "You'd do well to heed what I told you about choosing a crew." A
thrall offered them a platter, and she stabbed a salted fish and ate it off the end of her dirk. "If you had
troubled to learn the first thing of Sigrin, I could never have fooled you. Ten years a wolf, and you land
here and think to prince about the islands, but you know nothing and no one. Why should men fight and
die for you? "
"I am their lawful prince," Theon said stiffly.
"By the laws of the green lands, you might be. But we make our own laws here, or have you forgotten?"
Scowling, Theon turned to contemplate the leaking trencher before him. He would have stew in his lap
before long. He shouted for a thrall to clean it up. Half my life I have waited to come home, and for
what? Mockery and disregard? This was not the Pyke he remembered. Or did he remember? He had
been so young when they took him away to hold hostage.
The feast was a meager enough thing, a succession of fish stews, black bread, and spiceless goat. The
tastiest thing Theon found to eat was an onion pie. Ale and wine continued to flow well after the last of
the courses had been cleared away.
Lord Balon Greyjoy rose from the Seastone Chair. "Have done with your drink and come to my solar,"
he commanded his companions on the dais. "We have plans to lay." He left them with no other word,
flanked by two of his guards. His brothers followed in short order. Theon rose to go after them.
"My little brother is in a rush to be off." Asha raised her drinking horn and beckoned for more ale.
"Our lord father is waiting."
"And has, for many a year. It will do him no harm to wait a little longer . . . but if you fear his wrath,
scurry after him by all means. You ought to have no trouble catching our uncles." She smiled. "One is
drunk on seawater, after all, and the other is a great grey bullock so dim he'll probably get lost."
Theon sat back down, annoyed. "I run after no man."
"No man, but every woman?"
"It was not me who grabbed your cock."
"I don't have one, remember? You grabbed every other bit of me quick enough."


He could feel the flush creeping up his cheeks. "I'm a man with a man's hungers. What sort of unnatural
creature are you?"
"Only a shy maid." Asha's hand darted out under the table to give his cock a squeeze. Theon nearly
jumped from his chair. "What, don't you want me to steer you into port, brother?"
"Marriage is not for you," Theon decided. "When I rule, I believe I will pack you off to the silent sisters."
He lurched to his feet and strode off unsteadily to find his father.
Rain was falling by the time he reached the swaying bridge out to the Sea Tower. His stomach was
crashing and churning like the waves below, and wine had unsteadied his feet. Theon gritted his teeth and
gripped the rope tightly as he made his way across, pretending that it was Asha's neck he was clutching.
The solar was as damp and drafty as ever. Buried under his sealskin robes, his father sat before the
brazier with his brothers on either side of him. Victarion was talking of tides and winds when Theon
entered, but Lord Balon waved him silent. "I have made my plans. It is time you heard them."
"I have some suggestions-"
"When I require your counsel I shall ask for it," his father said. "We have had a bird from Old Wyk.
Dagmer is bringing the Drumms and Stonehouses. If the god grants us good winds, we will sail when they
arrive . . . or you will. I mean for you to strike the first blow, Theon. You shall take eight longships
north-"
"Eight?" His face reddened. "What can I hope to accomplish with only eight longships?"
"You are to harry the Stony Shore, raiding the fishing villages and sinking any ships you chance to meet.
It may be that you will draw some of the northern lords out from behind their stone walls. Aeron will
accompany you, and Dagmer Cleftjaw."
"May the Drowned God bless our swords," the priest said.
Theon felt as if he'd been slapped. He was being sent to do reaver's work, burning fishermen out of their
hovels and raping their ugly daughters, and yet it seemed Lord Balon did not trust him sufficiently to do
even that much. Bad enough to have to suffer the Damphair's scowls and chidings. With Dagmer
Cleftjaw along as well, his command would be purely nominal.
"Asha my daughter," Lord Balon went on, and Theon turned to see that his sister had slipped in silently,
"you shall take thirty longships of picked men round Sea Dragon Point. Land upon the tidal flats north of
Deepwood Motte. March quickly, and the castle may fall before they even know you are upon them."
Asha smiled like a cat in cream. "I've always wanted a castle," she said sweetly.
"Then take one."
Theon had to bite his tongue. Deepwood Motte was the stronghold of the Glovers. With both Robett
and Galbart warring in the south, it would be lightly held, and once the castle fell the ironmen would have
a
secure base in the heart of the north. I should be the one sent to take Deepwood. He knew Deepwood
Motte, he had visited the Glovers several times with Eddard Stark.


"Victarion," Lord Balon said to his brother, "the main thrust shall fall to you. When my sons have struck
their blows, Winterfell must respond. You should meet small opposition as you sail up Saltspear and the
Fever River. At the headwaters, you will be less than twenty miles from Moat Cailin. The Neck is the
key to the kingdom. Already we command the western seas. Once we hold Moat Cailin, the pup will not
be able to win back to the north . . . and if he is fool enough to try, his enemies will seal the south end of
the causeway behind him, and Robb the boy will find himself caught like a rat in a bottle."
Theon could keep silent no longer. "A bold plan, Father, but the lords in their castles-"
Lord Balon rode over him. "The lords are gone south with the pup. Those who remained behind are the
cravens, old men, and green boys. They will yield or fall, one by one. Winterfell may defy us for a year,
but what of it? The rest shall be ours, forest and field and hall, and we shall make the folk our thralls and
salt wives."
Aeron Damphair raised his arms. "And the waters of wrath will rise high, and the Drowned God will
spread his dominion across the green lands! "
"What is dead can never die," Victarion intoned. Lord Balon and Asha echoed his words, and Theon
had no choice but to mumble along with them. And then it was done.
Outside the rain was falling harder than ever. The rope bridge twisted and writhed under his feet. Theon
Greyjoy stopped in the center of the span and contemplated the rocks below. The sound of the waves
was a crashing roar, and he could taste the salt spray on his lips. A sudden gust of wind made him lose
his footing, and he stumbled to his knees.
Asha helped him rise. "You can't hold your wine either, brother."
Theon leaned on her shoulder and let her guide him across the rainslick boards. "I liked you better when
you were Esgred," he told her accusingly.
She laughed. "That's fair. I liked you better when you were nine."
CHAPTER 25
TYRION
Through the door came the soft sound of the high harp, mingled with a trilling of pipes. The singer's voice
was muffled by the thick walls, yet Tyrion knew the verse. I loved a maid as fair as summer, he
remembered, with sunlight in her hair . . .
Ser Meryn Trant guarded the queen's door this night. His muttered "My lord" struck Tyrion as a tad
grudging, but he opened the door nonetheless. The song broke off abruptly as he strode into his sister's
bedchamber.
Cersei was reclining on a pile of cushions. Her feet were bare, her golden hair artfully tousled, her robe a
green-andgold samite that caught the light of the candles and shimmered as she looked up. "Sweet sister,"


Tyrion said, "how beautiful you look tonight." He turned to the singer. "And you as well, cousin. I had no
notion you had such a lovely voice."
The compliment made Ser Lancel sulky; perhaps he thought he was being mocked. It seemed to Tyrion
that the lad had grown three inches since being knighted. Lancel had thick sandy hair, green Lannister
eyes, and a line of soft blond fuzz on his upper lip. At sixteen, he was cursed with all the certainty of
youth, unleavened by any trace of humor or selfdoubt, and wed to the arrogance that came so naturally
to those born blond and strong and handsome. His recent elevation had only made him worse. "Did Her
Grace send for you?" the boy demanded.
"Not that I recall," Tyrion admitted. "It grieves me to disturb your
revels, Lancel, but as it happens, I have matters of import to discuss with my sister."
Cersei regarded him suspiciously. "If you are here about those begging brothers, Tyrion, spare me your
reproaches. I won't have them spreading their filthy treasons in the streets. They can preach to each other
in the dungeons."
"And count themselves lucky that they have such a gentle queen," added Lancel. "I would have had their
tongues out."
"One even dared to say that the gods were punishing us because Jaime murdered the rightful king,"
Cersei declared. "It will not be borne, Tyrion. I gave you ample opportunity to deal with these lice, but
you and your Ser Jacelyn did nothing, so I commanded Vylarr to attend to the matter."
"And so he did." Tyrion had been annoyed when the red cloaks had dragged a half dozen of the
scabrous prophets down to the dungeons without consulting him, but they were not important enough to
battle over. "No doubt we will all be better off for a little quiet in the streets. That is not why I came. I
have tidings I know you will be anxious to hear, sweet sister, but they are best spoken of privily."
"Very well." The harpist and the piper bowed and hurried out, while Cersei kissed her cousin chastely on
the cheek. "Leave us, Lancel. My brother's harmless when he's alone. If he'd brought his pets, we'd smell
them."
The young knight gave his cousin a baleful glance and pulled the door shut forcefully behind him. "I'll
have you know I make Shagga bathe once a fortnight," Tyrion said when he was gone.
"You're very pleased with yourself, aren't you? Why?"
"Why not?" Tyrion said. Every day, every night, hammers rang along the Street of Steel, and the great
chain grew longer. He hopped up onto the great canopied bed. "Is this the bed where Robert died? I'm
surprised you kept it."
"It gives me sweet dreams," she said. "Now spit out your business and waddle away, Imp."
Tyrion smiled. "Lord Stannis has sailed from Dragonstone."
Cersei bolted to her feet. "And yet you sit there grinning like a harvest-day pumpkin? Has Bywater
called out the City Watch? We must send a bird to Harrenhal at once." He was laughing by then. She
seized him by the shoulders and shook him. "Stop it. Are you mad, or drunk? Stop it!"


It was all he could do to get out the words. "I can't," he gasped. "It's too . . . gods, too funny . . . Stannis
-What~ "
"He hasn't sailed against us," Tyrion managed. "He's laid siege to Storm's End. Renly is riding to meet
him."
His sister's nails dug painfully into his arms. For a moment she stared incredulous, as if he had begun to
gibber in an unknown tongue. "Stannis and Renly are fighting each other?" When he nodded, Cersei
began to chuckle. "Gods be good," she gasped, "I'm starting to believe that Robert was the clever one."
Tyrion threw back his head and roared. They laughed together. Cersei pulled him off the bed and
whirled him around and even hugged him, for a moment as giddy as a girl. By the time she let go of him,
Tyrion was breathless and dizzy. He staggered to her sideboard and put out a hand to steady himself.
"Do you think it will truly come to battle between them? If they should come to some accord-"
"They won't," Tyrion said. "They are too different and yet too much alike, and neither could ever
stomach the other."
"And Stannis has always felt he was cheated of Storm's End," Cersei said thoughtfully. "The ancestral
seat of House Baratheon, his by rights . . . if you knew how many times he came to Robert singing that
same dull song in that gloomy aggrieved tone he has. When Robert gave the place to Renly, Stannis
clenched his jaw so tight I thought his teeth would shatter."
"He took it as a slight."
"It was meant as a slight," Cersei said.
"Shall we raise a cup to brotherly love?"
"Yes," she answered, breathless. "Oh, gods, yes."
His back was to her as he filled two cups with sweet Arbor red. It was the easiest thing in the world to
sprinkle a pinch of fine powder into hers. "To Stannis!" he said as he handed her the wine. Harmless
when I'm alone, am I?
"To Renly!" she replied, laughing. "May they battle long and hard, and the Others take them both!"
Is this the Cersei that Jaime sees? When she smiled, you saw how beautiful she was, truly. I loved a
maid as fair as summer, with sunlight in her hair. He almost felt sorry for poisoning her.
It was the next morning as he broke his fast that her messenger arrived. The queen was indisposed and
would not be able to leave her chambers. Not able to leave her privy, more like. Tyrion made the proper
sympathetic noises and sent word to Cersei to rest easy, he would treat with Ser Cleos as they'd
planned.
The Iron Throne of Aegon the Conqueror was a tangle of nasty barbs and jagged metal teeth waiting for
any fool who tried to sit too comfortably,
and the steps made his stunted legs cramp as he climbed up to it, all too aware of what an absurd


spectacle he must be. Yet there was one thing to be said for it. It was high.
Lannister guardsmen stood silent in their crimson cloaks and lioncrested halffielms. Ser Jacelyn's gold
cloaks faced them across the hall. The steps to the throne were flanked by Bronn and Ser Preston of the
Kingsguard. Courtiers filled the gallery while supplicants clustered near the towering oak-and-bronze
doors. Sansa Stark looked especially lovely this morning, though her face was as pale as milk. Lord
Gyles stood coughing, while poor cousin Tyrek wore his bridegroom's mantle of miniver and velvet.
Since his marriage to little Lady Ermesande three days past, the other squires had taken to calling him
"Wet Nurse" and asking him what sort of swaddling clothes his bride wore on their wedding night.
Tyrion looked down on them all, and found he liked it. "Call forth Ser Cleos Frey." His voice rang off
the stone walls and down the length of the hall. He liked that too. A pity Shae could not be here to see
this, he reflected. She'd asked to come, but it was impossible.
Ser Cleos made the long walk between the gold cloaks and the crimson, looking neither right nor left. As
he knelt, Tyrion observed that his cousin was losing his hair.
"Ser Cleos," Littlefinger said from the council table, "you have our thanks for bringing us this peace offer
from Lord Stark."
Grand Maester Pycelle cleared his throat. "The Queen Regent, the King's Hand, and the small council
have considered the terms offered by this self-styled King in the North. Sad to say, they will not do, and
you must tell these northmen so, ser."
"Here are our terms," said Tyrion. "Robb Stark must lay down his sword, swear fealty, and return to
Winterfell. He must free my brother unharmed, and place his host under Jaime's command, to march
against the rebels Renly and Stannis Baratheon. Each of Stark's bannermen must send us a son as
hostage. A daughter will suffice where there is no son. They shall be treated gently and given high places
here at court, so long as their fathers commit no new treasons."
Cleos Frey looked ill. "My lord Hand," he said, "Lord Stark will never consent to these terms."
We never expected he would, Cleos. "Tell him that we have raised another great host at Casterly Rock,
that soon it will march on him from the west while my lord father advances from the east. Tell him that he
stands alone, without hope of allies. Stannis and Renly Baratheon war against each other, and the Prince
of Dorne has consented to wed his son Trystane to the Princess Myrcella." Murmurs of delight and
consternation alike arose from the gallery and the back of the hall.
"As to this of my cousins," Tyrion went on, "we offer Harrion Karstark and Ser Wylis Manderly for
Willem Lannister, and Lord Cerwyn and Ser Donnel Locke for your brother Tion. Tell Stark that two
Lannisters are worth four northmen in any season." He waited for the laughter to die. "His father's bones
he shall have, as a gesture of Joffrey's good faith."
"Lord Stark asked for his sisters and his father's sword as well," Ser Cleos reminded him.
Ser Ilyn Payne stood mute, the hilt of Eddard Stark's greatsword rising over one shoulder. "Ice," said
Tyrion. "He'll have that when he makes his peace with us, not before."
"As you say. And his sisters?"
Tyrion glanced toward Sansa, and felt a stab of pity as he said, "Until such time as he frees my brother


Jaime, unharmed, they shall remain here as hostages. How well they are treated depends on him." And if
the gods are good, Bywater will find Arya alive, before Robb learns she's gone missing.
"I shall bring him your message, my lord."
Tyrion plucked at one of the twisted blades that sprang from the arm of the throne. And now the thrust.
"Vylarr," he called.
"My lord."
"The men Stark sent are sufficient to protect Lord Eddard's bones, but a Lannister should have a
Lannister escort," Tyrion declared. "Ser Cleos is the queen's cousin, and mine. We shall sleep more
easily if you would see him safely back to Riverrun."
"As you command. How many men should I take?"
"Why, all of them."
Vylarr stood like a man made of stone. It was Grand Maester Pycelle who rose, gasping, "My lord
Hand, that cannot . . . your father, Lord Tywin himself, he sent these good men to our city to protect
Queen Cersei and her children . . ."
"The Kingsguard and the City Watch protect them well enough. The gods speed you on your way,
Vylarr."
At the council table Varys smiled knowingly, Littlefinger sat feigning boredom, and Pycelle gaped like a
fish, pale and confused. A herald stepped forward. "If any man has other matters to set before the King's
Hand, let him speak now or go forth and hold his silence."
"I will be heard." A slender man all in black pushed his way between the Redwyne twins.
"Ser Alliser!" Tyrion exclaimed. "Why, I had no notion that you'd come to court. You should have sent
me word."
"I have, as well you know." Thorne was as prickly as his name, a spare, sharp-featured man of fifty,
hard-eyed and hard-handed, his black
hair streaked with grey. "I have been shunned, ignored, and left to wait like some baseborn servant."
"Truly? Bronn, this was not well done. Ser Alliser and I are old friends. We walked the Wall together."
"Sweet Ser Alliser," murmured Varys, "you must not think too harshly of us. So many seek our Joffrey's
grace, in these troubled and tumultuous times."
"More troubled than you know, eunuch."
"To his face we call him Lord Eunuch," quipped Littlefinger.
"How may we be of help to you, good brother?" Grand Maester Pycelle asked in soothing tones.
"The Lord Commander sent me to His Grace the king," Thorne answered. "The matter is too grave to


be left to servants."
"The king is playing with his new crossbow," Tyrion said. Ridding himself of Joffrey had required only an
ungainly Myrish crossbow that threw three quarrels at a time, and nothing would do but that he try it at
once. "You can speak to servants or hold your silence."
"As you will," Ser Alliser said, displeasure in every word. "I am sent to tell you that we found two
rangers, long missing. They were dead, yet when we brought the corpses back to the Wall they rose
again in the night. One slew Ser Jaremy Rykker, while the second tried to murder the Lord Commander."
Distantly, Tyrion heard someone snigger. Does he mean to mock me with this folly? He shifted uneasily
and glanced down at Varys, Littlefinger, and Pycelle, wondering if one of them had a role in this. A dwarf
enjoyed at best a tenuous hold on dignity. Once the court and kingdom started to laugh at him, he was
doomed. And yet . . . and yet . . .
Tyrion remembered a cold night under the stars when he'd stood beside the boy Jon Snow and a great
white wolf atop the Wall at the end of the world, gazing out at the trackless dark beyond. He had
felt-what?something, to be sure, a dread that had cut like that frigid northern wind. A wolf had howled off
in the night, and the sound had sent a shiver through him.
Don't be a fool, he told himself. A wolf, a wind, a dark forest, it meant nothing. And yet . . . He had
come to have a liking for old Jeor Mormont during his time at Castle Black. "I trust that the Old Bear
survived this attack?"
"He did."
"And that your brothers killed these, ah, dead men?"
,,we did.,,
"You're certain that they are dead this time?" Tyrion asked mildly. When Brorm choked on a snort of
laughter, he knew how he must proceed. "Truly truly dead?"
"They were dead the first time," Ser Alliser snapped. "Pale and cold, with black hands and feet. I
brought Jared's hand, torn from his corpse by the bastard's wolf."
Littlefinger stirred. "And where is this charming token?"
Ser Alliser frowned uncomfortably. "it . . . rotted to pieces while I waited, unheard. There's naught left to
show but bones."
Titters echoed through the hall. "Lord Baelish," Tyrion called down to Littlefinger, "buy our brave Ser
Alliser a hundred spades to take back to the Wall with him."
"Spades?" Ser Alliser narrowed his eyes suspiciously.
"If you bury your dead, they won't come walking," Tyrion told him, and the court laughed openly.
"Spades will end your troubles, with some strong backs to wield them. Ser Jacelyn, see that the good
brother has his pick of the city dungeons."
Ser Jacelyn Bywater said, "As you will, my lord, but the cells are near empty. Yoren took all the likely


men."
"Arrest some more, then," Tyrion told him. "Or spread the word that there's bread and turnips on the
Wall, and they'll go of their own accord." The city had too many mouths to feed, and the Night's Watch a
perpetual need of men. At Tyrion's signal, the herald cried an end, and the hall began to empty.
Ser Alliser Thorne was not so easily dismissed. He was waiting at the foot of the iron Throne when
Tyrion descended. "Do you think I sailed all the way from Eastwatch-by-the-Sea to be mocked by the
likes of you?" he fumed, blocking the way. "This is no jape. I saw it with my own eyes. I tell you, the
dead walk."
"You should try to kill them more thoroughly." Tyrion pushed past. Ser Alliser made to grab his sleeve,
but Preston Greenfield thrust him back. "No closer, ser."
Thorne knew better than to challenge a knight of the Kingsguard. "You are a fool, Imp," he shouted at
Tyrion's back.
The dwarf turned to face him. "Me? Truly? Then why were they laughing at you, I wonder?" He smiled
wanly. "You came for men, did you not?"
"The cold winds are rising. The Wall must be held."
"And to hold it you need men, which I've given you . . . as you might have noted, if your ears heard
anything but insults. Take them, thank me, and begone before I'm forced to take a crab fork to you
again. Give my warm regards to Lord Mormont . . . and to Jon Snow as well." Brorm seized Ser Alliser
by the elbow and marched him forcefully from the hall.
Grand Maester Pycelle had already scuttled off, but Varys and Littlefinger had watched it all, start to
finish. "I grow ever more admiring of
you, my lord," confessed the eunuch. "You appease the Stark boy with his father's bones and strip your
sister of her protectors in one swift stroke. You give that black brother the men he seeks, rid the city of
some hungry mouths, yet make it all seem mockery so none may say that the dwarf fears snarks and
grumkins. Oh, deftly done."
Littlefinger stroked his beard. "Do you truly mean to send away all your guards, Lannister?"
"No, I mean to send away all my sister's guards."
"The queen will never allow that."
"Oh, I think she may. I am her brother, and when you've known me longer, you'll learn that I mean
everything I say."
"Even the lies?"
"Especially the lies. Lord Petyr, I sense that you are unhappy with me."
"I love you as much as I ever have, my lord. Though I do not relish being played for a fool. if Myrcella
weds Trystane Martell, she can scarcely wed Robert Arryn, can she?"


"Not without causing a great scandal," he admitted. "I regret my little ruse, Lord Petyr, but when we
spoke, I could not know the Dornishmen would accept my offer."
Littlefinger was not appeased. "I do not like being lied to, my lord. Leave me out of your next
deception."
Only if you'll do the same for me, Tyrion thought, glancing at the dagger sheathed at Littlefinger's hip. "If
I have given offense, I am deeply sorry. All men know how much we love you, my lord. And how much
we need you."
"Try and remember that." With that Littlefinger left them.
"Walk with me, Varys," said Tyrion. They left through the king's door behind the throne, the eunuch's
slippers whisking lightly over the stone.
"Lord Baelish has the truth of it, you know. The queen will never permit you to send away her guard."
"She will. You'll see to that."
A smile flickered across Varys's plump lips. "Will I?"
"Oh, for a certainty. You'll tell her it is part of my scheme to free Jaime."
Varys stroked a powdered cheek. "This would doubtless involve the four men your man Bronn searched
for so diligently in all the low places of King's Landing. A thief, a poisoner, a mummer, and a murderer."
"Put them in crimson cloaks and lion helms, they'll look no different from any other guardsmen. I
searched for some time for a ruse that might get them into Riverrun before I thought to hide them in plain
sight. They'll ride in by the main gate, flying Lannister banners and escorting Lord Eddard's bones." He
smiled crookedly. "Four men alone would be
watched vigilantly. Four among a hundred can lose themselves. So I must send the true guardsmen as
well as the false . . . as you'll tell my sister."
"And for the sake of her beloved brother, she will consent, despite her misgivings." They made their way
down a deserted colonnade. "Still, the loss of her red cloaks will surely make her uneasy."
"I like her uneasy," said Tyrion.
Ser Cleos Frey left that very afternoon, escorted by Vylarr and a hundred red-cloaked Lannister
guardsmen. The men Robb Stark had sent joined them at the King's Gate for the long ride west.
Tyrion found Timett dicing with his Burned Men in the barracks. "Come to my solar at midnight." Timett
gave him a hard one-eyed stare, a curt nod. He was not one for long speeches.
That night he feasted with the Stone Crows and Moon Brothers in the Small Hall, though he shunned the
wine for once. He wanted all his wits about him. "Shagga, what moon is this?"
Shagga's frown was a fierce thing. "Black, I think."
"In the west, they call that a traitor's moon. Try not to get too drunk tonight, and see that your axe is


sharp."
"A Stone Crow's axe is always sharp, and Shagga's axes are sharpest of all. Once I cut off a man's
head, but he did not know it until he tried to brush his hair. Then it fell off."
"Is that why you never brush yours?" The Stone Crows roared and stamped their feet, Shagga hooting
loudest of all.
By midnight, the castle was silent and dark. Doubtless a few gold cloaks on the walls spied them leaving
the Tower of the Hand, but no one raised a voice. He was the Hand of the King, and where he went was
his own affair.
The thin wooden door split with a thunderous crack beneath the heel of Shagga's boot. Pieces went
flying inward, and Tyrion heard a woman's gasp of fear. Shagga hacked the door apart with three great
blows of his axe and kicked his way through the ruins. Timett followed, and then Tyrion, stepping
gingerly over the splinters. The fire had burned down a few glowing embers, and shadows lay thick
across the bedchamber. When Timett ripped the heavy curtains off the bed, the naked serving girl stared
up with wide white eyes. "Please, my lords," she pleaded, "don't hurt me." She cringed away from
Shagga, flushed and fearful, trying to cover her charms with her hands and coming up a hand short.
"Go," Tyrion told her. "It's not you we want."
"Shagga wants this woman."
"Shagga wants every whore in this city of whores," complained Timett son of Timett.
"Yes," Shagga said, unabashed. "Shagga would give her a strong child."
"If she wants a strong child, she'll know whom to seek," Tyrion said. "Timett, see her out . . . gently, if
you would."
The Burned Man pulled the girl from the bed and half marched, half dragged her across the chamber.
Shagga watched them go, mournful as a puppy. The girl stumbled over the shattered door and out into
the hall, helped along by a firm shove from Timett. Above their heads, the ravens were screeching.
Tyrion dragged the soft blanket off the bed, uncovering Grand Maester Pycelle beneath. "Tell me, does
the Citadel approve of you bedding the serving wenches, Maester?"
The old man was as naked as the girl, though he made a markedly less attractive sight. For once, his
heavy-lidded eyes were open wide. "Wwhat is the meaning of this? I am an old man, your loyal servant .
. ."
Tyrion hoisted himself onto the bed. "So loyal that you sent only one of my letters to Doran Martell. The
other you gave to my sister."
"N-no," squealed Pycelle. "No, a falsehood, I swear it, it was not me. Varys, it was Varys, the Spider, I
warned you-"
"Do all maesters lie so poorly? I told Varys that I was giving Prince Doran my nephew Tornmen to
foster. I told Littlefinger that I planned to wed Myrcella to Lord Robert of the Eyrie. I told no one that I
had offered Myrcella to the Dornish . . . that truth was only in the letter I entrusted to you."


Pycelle clutched for a corner of the blanket. "Birds are lost, messages stolen or sold . . . it was Varys,
there are things I might tell you of that eunuch that would chill your blood
"My lady prefers my blood hot."
"Make no mistake, for every secret the eunuch whispers in your ear, he holds seven back. And
Littlefinger, that one . . ."
"I know all about Lord Petyr. He's almost as untrustworthy as you. Shagga, cut off his manhood and
feed it to the goats."
Shagga hefted the huge double-bladed axe. "There are no goats, Halfman."
"Make do."
Roaring, Shagga leapt forward. Pycelle shrieked and wet the bed, urine spraying in all directions as he
tried to scramble back out of reach. The wildling caught him by the end of his billowy white beard and
hacked off three-quarters of it with a single slash of the axe.
"Timett, do you suppose our friend will be more forthcoming without those whiskers to hide behind?"
Tyrion used a bit of the sheet to wipe the piss off his boots.
"He will tell the truth soon." Darkness pooled in the empty pit of Timett's burned eye. "I can smell the
stink of his fear."
Shagga tossed a handful of hair down to the rushes, and seized what beard was left. "Hold still,
Maester," urged Tyrion. "When Shagga gets angry, his hands shake."
"Shagga's hands never shake," the huge man said indignantly, pressing the great crescent blade under
Pycelle's quivering chin and sawing through another tangle of beard.
"How long have you been spying for my sister?" Tyrion asked.
Pycelle's breathing was rapid and shallow. "All I did, I did for House Lannister." A sheen of sweat
covered the broad dome of the old man's brow, and wisps of white hair clung to his wrinkled skin.
"Always . . . for years . . . your lord father, ask him, I was ever his true servant . . . 'twas I who bid
Aerys open his gates . . ."
That took Tyrion by surprise. He had been no more than an ugly boy at Casterly Rock when the city fell.
"So the Sack of King's Landing was your work as well?"
"For the realm! Once Rhaegar died, the war was done. Aerys was mad, Viserys too young, Prince
Aegon a babe at the breast, but the realm needed a king . . . I prayed it should be your good father, but
Robert was too strong, and Lord Stark moved too swiftly . . ."
"How many have you betrayed, I wonder? Aerys, Eddard Stark, me . . . King Robert as well? Lord
Arryn, Prince Rhaegar? Where does it begin, Pycelle?" He knew where it ended.
The axe scratched at the apple of Pycelle's throat and stroked the soft wobbly skin under his jaw,
scraping away the last hairs. "You . . . were not here," he gasped when the blade moved upward to his


cheeks. "Robert . . . his wounds . . . if you had seen them, smelled them, you would have no doubt . . ."
"Oh, I know the boar did your work for you . . . but if he'd left the job half done, doubtless you would
have finished it."
"He was a wretched king . . . vain, drunken, lecherous . . . he would have set your sister aside, his own
queen . . . please . . . Renly was plotting to bring the Highgarden maid to court, to entice his brother . . . it
is the gods' own truth . . ."
"And what was Lord Arryn plotting?"
"He knew," Pycelle said. "About . . . about
"I know what he knew about," snapped Tyrion, who was not anxious for Shagga and Timett to know as
well.
"He was sending his wife back to the Eyrie, and his son to be fostered on Dragonstone . . . he meant to
act
"So you poisoned him first."
"No." Pycelle struggled feebly. Shagga growled and grabbed his head. The clansman's hand was so big
he could have crushed the maester's skull like an eggshell had he squeezed.
Tyrion tsked at him. "I saw the tears of Lys among your potions. And you sent away Lord Arryn's own
maester and tended him yourself, so you could make certain that he died."
"A falsehood!"
"Shave him closer," Tyrion suggested. "The throat again."
The axe swept back down, rasping over the skin. A thin film of spit bubbled on Pycelle's lips as his
mouth trembled. "I tried to save Lord Arryn. I vow-"
"Careful now, Shagga, you've cut him."
Shagga growled. "Dolf fathered warriors, not barbers."
When he felt the blood trickling down his neck and onto his chest, the old man shuddered, and the last
strength went out of him. He looked shrunken, both smaller and frailer than he had been when they burst
in on him. "Yes," he wimpered, "yes, Colemon was purging, so I sent him away. The queen needed Lord
Arryn dead, she did not say so, could not, Varys was listening, always listening, but when I looked at her
I knew. It was not me who gave him the poison, though, I swear it." The old man wept. "Varys will tell
you, it was the boy, his squire, Hugh he was called, he must surely have done it, ask your sister, ask her."
Tyrion was disgusted. "Bind him and take him away," he commanded. "Throw him down in one of the
black cells."
They dragged him out the splintered door. "Lannister," he moaned, "all I've done has been for Lannister .
. ."


When he was gone, Tyrion made a leisurely search of the quarters and collected a few more small jars
from his shelves. The ravens muttered above his head as he worked, a strangely peaceful noise. He
would need to find someone to tend the birds until the Citadel sent a man to replace Pycelle.
He was the one I'd hoped to trust. Varys and Littlefinger were no more loyal, he suspected . . . only
more subtle, and thus more dangerous. Perhaps his father's way would have been best: summon Ilyn
Payne, mount three heads above the gates, and have done. And wouldn't that be a pretty sight, he
thought.
CHAPTER 26
ARYA
Fear cuts deeper than swords, Arya would tell herself, but that did not make the fear go away. It was as
much a part of her days as stale bread and the blisters on her toes after a long day of walking the hard,
rutted road.
She had thought she had known what it meant to be afraid, but she learned better in that storehouse
beside the Gods Eye. Eight days she had lingered there before the Mountain gave the command to
march, and every day she had seen someone die.
The Mountain would come into the storehouse after he had broken his fast and pick one of the prisoners
for questioning. The village folk would never look at him. Maybe they thought that if they did not notice
him, he would not notice them . . . but he saw them anyway and picked whom he liked. There was no
place to hide, no tricks to play, no way to be safe.
One girl shared a soldier's bed three nights running; the Mountain picked her on the fourth day, and the
soldier said nothing.
A smiley old man mended their clothing and babbled about his son, off serving in the gold cloaks at
King's Landing. "A king's man, he is," he would say, "a good king's man like me, all for Joffrey." He said
it so often the other captives began to call him All-for-Joffrey whenever the guards weren't listening.
All-for-Joffrey was picked on the fifth day.
A young mother with a pox-scarred face offered to freely tell them all she knew if they'd promise not to
hurt her daughter. The Mountain
heard her out; the next morning he picked her daughter, to be certain she'd held nothing back.
The ones chosen were questioned in full view of the other captives, so they could see the fate of rebels
and traitors. A man the others called the Tickler asked the questions. His face was so ordinary and his
garb so plain that Arya might have thought him one of the villagers before she had seen him at his work.
"Tickler makes them howl so hard they piss themselves," old stoop-shoulder Chiswyck told them. He
was the man she'd tried to bite, who'd called her a fierce little thing and smashed her head with a mailed
fist. Sometimes he helped the Tickler. Sometimes others did that. Ser Gregor Clegane himself would
stand motionless, watching and listening, until the victim died.


The questions were always the same. Was there gold hidden in the village? Silver, gems? Was there
more food? Where was Lord Beric Dondarrion? Which of the village folk had aided him? When he rode
off, where did he go? How many men were with them? How many knights, how many bowmen, how
many men-at-arms? How were they armed? How many were horsed? How many were wounded? What
other enemy had they seen? How many? When? What banners did they fly? Where did they go? Was
there gold hidden in the village? Silver, gems? Where was Lord Beric Dondarrion? How many men were
with him? By the third day, Arya could have asked the questions herself.
They found a little gold, a little silver, a great sack of copper pennies, and a dented goblet set with
garnets that two soldiers almost came to blows over. They learned that Lord Beric had ten starvelings
with him, or else a hundred mounted knights; that he had ridden west, or north, or south; that he had
crossed the lake in a boat; that he was strong as an aurochs or weak from the bloody flux. No one ever
survived the Tickler's questioning; no man, no woman, no child. The strongest lasted past evenfall. Their
bodies were hung beyond the fires for the wolves.
By the time they marched, Arya knew she was no water dancer. Syrio Forel would never have let them
knock him down and take his sword away, nor stood by when they killed Lommy Greenhands. Syrio
would never have sat silent in that storehouse nor shuffled along meekly among the other captives. The
direwolf was the sigil of the Starks, but Arya felt more a lamb, surrounded by a herd of other sheep. She
hated the villagers for their sheepishness, almost as much as she hated herself.
The Lannisters had taken everything: father, friends, home, hope, courage. One had taken Needle, while
another had broken her wooden stick sword over his knee. They had even taken her stupid secret. The
storehouse had been big enough for her to creep off and make her water in some corner when no one
was looking, but it was different on the road. She held it as long as she could, but finally she had to squat
by a
bush and skin down her breeches in front of all of them. It was that or wet herself. Hot Pie gaped at her
with big moon eyes, but no one else even troubled to look. Girl sheep or boy sheep, Ser Gregor and his
men did not seem to care.
Their captors permitted no chatter. A broken lip taught Arya to hold her tongue. Others never learned at
all. One boy of three would not stop calling for his father, so they smashed his face in with a spiked
mace. Then the boy's mother started screaming and Raff the Sweetling killed her as well.
Arya watched them die and did nothing. What good did it do you to be brave? One of the women
picked for questioning had tried to be brave, but she had died screaming like all the rest. There were no
brave people on that march, only scared and hungry ones. Most were women and children. The few men
were very old or very young; the rest had been chained to that gibbet and left for the wolves and the
crows. Gendry was only spared because he'd admitted to forging the horned helm himself; smiths, even
apprentice smiths, were too valuable to kill.
They were being taken to serve Lord Tywin Lannister at Harrenhal, the Mountain told them. "You're
traitors and rebels, so thank your gods that Lord Tywin's giving you this chance. It's more than you'd get
from the outlaws. Obey, serve, and live."
"It's not just, it's not," she heard one wizened old woman complain to another when they had bedded
down for the night. "We never did no treason, the others come in and took what they wanted, same as
this bunch."
"Lord Beric did us no hurt, though," her friend whispered. "And that red priest with him, he paid for all


they took."
"Paid? He took two of my chickens and gave me a bit of paper with a mark on it. Can I eat a bit of
raggy old paper, I ask you? Will it give me eggs?" She looked about to see that no guards were near,
and spat three times. "There's for the Tullys and there's for the Lannisters and there's for the Starks."
"It's a sin and a shame," an old man hissed. "When the old king was still alive, he'd not have stood for
this."
"King Robert?" Arya asked, forgetting herself.
"King Aerys, gods grace him," the old man said, too loudly. A guard came sauntering over to shut them
up. The old man lost both his teeth, and there was no more talk that night.
Besides his captives, Ser Gregor was bringing back a dozen pigs, a cage of chickens, a scrawny milk
cow, and nine wagons of salt fish. The Mountain and his men had horses, but the captives were all afoot,
and those too weak to keep up were killed out of hand, along with anyone foolish enough to flee. The
guards took women off into the bushes at
night, and most seemed to expect it and went along meekly enough. One girl, prettier than the others,
was made to go with four or five different men every night, until finally she hit one with a rock. Ser
Gregor made everyone watch while he took off her head with a sweep of his massive two-handed
greatsword. "Leave the body for the wolves," he commanded when the deed was done, handing the
sword to his squire to be cleaned.
Arya glanced sidelong at Needle, sheathed at the hip of a blackbearded, balding man-at-arms called
Polliver. It's good that they took it away, she thought. Otherwise she would have tried to stab Ser
Gregor, and he would have cut her right in half, and the wolves would eat her too.
Polliver was not so bad as some of the others, even though he'd stolen Needle. The night she was
caught, the Lannister men had been nameless strangers with faces as alike as their nasal helms, but she'd
come to know them all. You had to know who was lazy and who was cruel, who was smart and who
was stupid. You had to learn that even though the one they called Shitmouth had the foulest tongue she'd
ever heard, he'd give you an extra piece of bread if you asked, while jolly old Chiswyck and soft-spoken
Raff would just give you the back of their hand.
Arya watched and listened and polished her hates the way Gendry had once polished his horned helm.
Dunsen wore those bull's horns now, and she hated him for it. She hated Polliver for Needle, and she
hated old Chiswyck who thought he was funny. And Raff the Sweetling, who'd driven his spear through
Lommy's throat, she hated even more. She hated Ser Amory Lorch for Yoren, and she hated Ser Meryn
Trant for Syrio, the Hound for killing the butcher's boy Mycah, and Ser Ilyn and Prince Joffrey and the
queen for the sake of her father and Fat Tom and Desmond and the rest, and even for Lady, Sansa's
wolf. The Tickler was almost too scary to hate. At times she could almost forget he was still with them;
when he was not asking questions, he was just another soldier, quieter than most, with a face like a
thousand other men.
Every night Arya would say their names. "Ser Gregor," she'd whisper to her stone pillow. "Dunsen,
Polliver, Chiswyck, Raff the Sweetling. The Tickler and the Hound. Ser Amory, Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn,
King Joffrey, Queen Cersei." Back in Winterfell, Arya had prayed with her mother in the sept and with
her father in the godswood, but there were no gods on the road to Harrenhal, and her names were the
only prayer she cared to remember.


Every day they marched, and every night she said her names, until finally the trees thinned and gave way
to a patchwork landscape of rolling hills, meandering streams, and sunlit fields, where the husks of burnt
holdfasts thrust up black as rotten teeth. It was another long day's march
before they glimpsed the towers of Harrenhal in the distance, hard beside the blue waters of the lake.
It would be better once they got to Harrenhal, the captives told each other, but Arya was not so certain.
She remembered Old Nan's stories of the castle built on fear. Harren the Black had mixed human blood
in the mortar, Nan used to say, dropping her voice so the children would need to lean close to hear, but
Aegon's dragons had roasted Harren and all his sons within their great walls of stone. Arya chewed her
lip as she walked along on feet grown hard with callus. It would not be much longer, she told herself;
those towers could not be more than a few miles off.
Yet they walked all that day and most of the next before at last they reached the fringes of Lord Tywin's
army, encamped west of the castle amidst the scorched remains of a town. Harrenhal was deceptive
from afar, because it was so huge. Its colossal curtain walls rose beside the lake, sheer and sudden as
mountain cliffs, while atop their battlements the rows of wood-and-iron scorpions looked as small as the
bugs for which they were named.
The stink of the Lannister host reached Arya well before she could make out the devices on the banners
that sprouted along the lakeshore, atop the pavilions of the westermen. From the smell, Arya could tell
that Lord Tywin had been here some time. The latrines that ringed the encampment were overflowing and
swarming with flies, and she saw faint greenish fuzz on many of the sharpened stakes that protected the
perimeters.
Harrenhal's gatehouse, itself as large as Winterfell's Great Keep, was as scarred as it was massive, its
stones fissured and discolored. From outside, only the tops of five immense towers could be seen
beyond the walls. The shortest of them was half again as tall as the highest tower in Winterfell, but they
did not soar the way a proper tower did. Arya thought they looked like some old man's gnarled, knuckly
fingers groping after a passing cloud. She remembered Nan telling how the stone had melted and flowed
like candlewax down the steps and in the windows, glowing a sullen searing red as it sought out Harren
where he hid. Arya could believe every word; each tower was more grotesque and misshapen than the
last, lumpy and runneled and cracked.
"I don't want to go there," Hot Pie squeaked as Harrenhal opened its gates to them. "There's ghosts in
there."
Chiswyck heard him, but for once he only smiled. "Baker boy, here's your choice. Come join the ghosts,
or be one."
Hot Pie went in with the rest of them.
In the echoing stone-and-timber bathhouse, the captives were stripped and made to scrub and scrape
themselves raw in tubs of scalding hot
water. Two fierce old women supervised the process, discussing them as bluntly as if they were newly
acquired donkeys. When Arya's turn came round, Goodwife Amabel clucked in dismay at the sight of
her feet, while Goodwife Harra felt the callus on her fingers that long hours of practice with Needle had
earned her. "Got those churning butter, I'll wager," she said. "Some farmer's whelp, are you? Well, never
you mind, girl, you have a chance to win a higher place in this world if you work hard. If you won't work


hard, you'll be beaten. And what do they call you?"
Arya dared not say her true name, but Arry was no good either, it was a boy's name and they could see
she was no boy. "Weasel," she said, naming the first girl she could think of. "Lommy called me Weasel."
"I can see why," sniffed Goodwife Amabel. "That hair is a fright and a nest for lice as well. We'll have it
off, and then you're for the kitchens."
"I'd sooner tend the horses." Arya liked horses, and maybe if she was in the stables she'd be able to
steal one and escape.
Goodwife Harra slapped her so hard that her swollen lip broke open all over again. "And keep that
tongue to yourself or you'll get worse. No one asked your views."
The blood in her mouth had a salty metal tang to it. Arya dropped her gaze and said nothing. ff I still had
Needle, she wouldn't dare hit me, she thought sullenly.
"Lord Tywin and his knights have grooms and squires to tend their horses, they don't need the likes of
you," Goodwife Amabel said. "The kitchens are snug and clean, and there's always a warm fire to sleep
by and plenty to eat. You might have done well there, but I can see you're not a clever girl. Harra, I
believe we should give this one to Weese."
"If you think so, Amabel." They gave her a shift of grey roughspun wool and a pair of ill-fitting shoes,
and sent her off.
Weese was understeward for the Wailing Tower, a squat man with a fleshy carbuncle of a nose and a
nest of angry red boils near one corner of his plump lips. Arya was one of six sent to him. He looked
them all over with a gimlet eye. "The Lannisters are generous to those as serve them well, an honor none
of your sort deserve, but in war a man makes do with what's to hand. Work hard and mind your place
and might be one day you'll rise as high as me. If you think to presume on his lordship's kindness, though,
you'll find me waiting after m'lord has gone, y'see." He strutted up and down before them, telling them
how they must never look the highborn in the eye, nor speak until spoken to, nor get in his lordship's
way. "My nose never lies," he boasted. "I can smell defiance, I can smell pride, I can smell disobedience.
I catch a whiff of any such stinks, you'll answer for it. When I sniff you, all I want to smell is fear."
CHAPTER 27
DAENERYS
0n the walls of Qarth, men beat gongs to herald her coming, while others blew curious horns that
encircled their bodies like great bronze snakes. A column of camelry emerged from the city as her honor
guards. The riders wore scaled copper armor and snouted helms with copper tusks and long black silk
plumes, and sat high on saddles inlaid with rubies and garnets. Their camels were dressed in blankets of a
hundred different hues.
"Qarth is the greatest city that ever was or ever will be," Pyat Pree had told her, back amongst the bones
of Vaes Tolorro. "It is the center of the world, the gate between north and south, the bridge between east


and west, ancient beyond memory of man and so magnificent that Saathos the Wise put out his eyes after
gazing upon Qarth for the first time, because he knew that all he saw thereafter should look squalid and
ugly by comparison."
Dany took the warlock's words well salted, but the magnificence of the great city was not to be denied.
Three thick walls encircled Qarth, elaborately carved. The outer was red sandstone, thirty feet high and
decorated with animals: snakes slithering, kites flying, fish swimming, intermingled with wolves of the red
waste and striped zorses and monstrous elephants. The middle wall, forty feet high, was grey granite alive
with scenes of war: the clash of sword and shield and spear, arrows in flight, heroes at battle and babes
being butchered, pyres of the dead. The innermost wall was fifty feet of black marble, with carvings that
made
Dany blush until she told herself that she was being a fool. She was no maid; if she could look on the
grey wall's scenes of slaughter, why should she avert her eyes from the sight of men and women giving
pleasure to one another?
The outer gates were banded with copper, the middle with iron; the innermost were studded with golden
eyes. All opened at Dany's approach. As she rode her silver into the city, small children rushd out to
scatter flowers in her path. They wore golden sandals and bright paint, no more.
All the colors that had been missing from Vaes Tolorro had found their way to Qarth; buildings crowded
about her fantastical as a fever dream in shades of rose, violet, and umber. She passed under a bronze
arch fashioned in the likeness of two snakes mating, their scales delicate flakes of jade, obsidian, and
lapis lazuli. Slim towers stood taller than any Dany had ever seen, and elaborate fountains filled every
square, wrought in the shapes of griffins and dragons and manticores.
The Qartheen lined the streets and watched from delicate balconies that looked too frail to support their
weight. They were tall pale folk in linen and samite and tiger fur, every one a lord or lady to her eyes. The
women wore gowns that left one breast bare, while the men favored beaded silk skirts. Dany felt shabby
and barbaric as she rode past them in her lionskin robe with black Drogon on one shoulder. Her
Dothraki called the Qartheen "Milk Men" for their paleness, and Khal Drogo had dreamed of the day
when he might sack the great cities of the east. She glanced at her bloodriders, their dark almond-shaped
eyes giving no hint of their thoughts. Is it only the plunder they see? she wondered. How savage we must
seem to these Qartheen.
Pyrat Pree conducted her little khalasar down the center of a great arcade where the city's ancient
heroes stood thrice life-size on columns of white and green marble. They passed through a bazaar in a
cavernous building whose latticework ceiling was home to a thousand gaily colored birds. Trees and
flowers bloomed on the terraced walls above the stalls, while below it seemed as if everything the gods
had put into the world was for sale.
Her silver shied as the merchant prince Xaro Xhoan Daxos rode up to her; the horses could not abide
the close presence of camels, she had found. "If you see here anything that you would desire, 0 most
beautiful of women, you have only to speak and it is yours," Xaro called down from his ornate horned
saddle.
"Qarth itself is hers, she has no need of baubles," blue-lipped Pyat Pree sang out from her other side. "It
shall be as I promised, Khaleesi. Come with me to the House of the Undying, and you shall drink of truth
and wisdom."
"Why should she need your Palace of Dust, when I can give her sunlight and sweet water and silks to


sleep in?" Xaro said to the warlock. "The Thirteen shall set a crown of black jade and fire opals upon her
lovely head."
"The only palace I desire is the red castle at King's Landing, my lord Pyat." Dany was wary of the
warlock; the maegi Mirri Maz Duur had soured her on those who played at sorcery. "And if the great of
Qarth would give me gifts, Xaro, let them give me ships and swords to win back what is rightfully mine."
Pyat's blue lips curled upward in a gracious smile. "it shall be as you command, Khaleesi. " He moved
away, swaying with his camel's motion, his long beaded robes trailing behind.
"The young queen is wise beyond her years," Xaro Xhoan Daxos murmured down at her from his high
saddle. "There is a saying in Qarth. A warlock's house is built of bones and lies."
"Then why do men lower their voices when they speak of the warlocks of Qarth? All across the east,
their power and wisdom are revered."
"Once they were mighty," Xaro agreed, "but now they are as ludicrous as those feeble old soldiers who
boast of their prowess long after strength and skill have left them. They read their crumbling scrolls, drink
shade-of-the-evening until their lips turn blue, and hint of dread powers, but they are hollow husks
compared to those who went before. Pyat Pree's gifts will turn to dust in your hands, I warn you." He
gave his camel a lick of his whip and sped away.
"The crow calls the raven black," muttered Ser Jorah in the Common Tongue of Westeros. The exile
knight rode at her right hand, as ever. For their entrance into Qarth, he had put away his Dothraki garb
and donned again the plate and mail and wool of the Seven Kingdoms half a world away. "You would do
well to avoid both those men, Your Grace."
"Those men will help me to my crown," she said. "Xaro has vast wealth, and Pyat Pree pretends to
power," the knight said brusquely. On his dark green surcoat, the bear of House Mormont stood on its
hind legs, black and fierce. Jorah looked no less ferocious as he scowled at the crowd that filled the
bazaar. "I would not linger here long, my queen. I mislike the very smell of this place."
Dany smiled. "Perhaps it's the camels you're smelling. The Qartheen themselves seem sweet enough to
my nose."
"Sweet smells are sometimes used to cover foul ones."
My great bear, Dany thought. I am his queen, but I will always be his cub as well, and he will always
guard me. It made her feel safe, but sad as well. She wished she could love him better than she did.
Xaro Xhoan Daxos had offered Dany the hospitality of his home while
she was in the city. She had expected something grand. She had not expected a palace larger than many
a market town. It makes Magister Illyrio's manse in Pentos look like a swineherd's hovel, she thought.
Xaro swore that his home could comfortably house all of her people and their horses besides; indeed, it
swallowed them. An entire wing was given over to her. She would have her own gardens, a marble
bathing pool, a scrying tower and warlock's maze. Slaves would tend her every need. In her private
chambers, the floors were green marble, the walls draped with colorful silk hangings that shimmered with
every breath of air. "You are too generous," she told Xaro Xhoan Daxos.
"For the Mother of Dragons, no gift is too great." Xaro was a languid, elegant man with a bald head and


a great beak of a nose crusted with rubies, opals, and flakes of jade. "On the morrow, you shall feast
upon peacock and lark's tongue, and hear music worthy of the most beautiful of women. The Thirteen
will come to do you homage, and all the great of Qarth."
All the great of Qarth will come to see my dragons, Dany thought, yet she thanked Xaro for his kindness
before she sent him on his way. Pyat Pree took his leave as well, vowing to petition the Undying Ones for
an audience. "A honor rare as summer snows." Before he left he kissed her bare feet with his pale blue
lips and pressed on her a gift, a jar of ointment that he swore would let her see the spirits of the air. Last
of the three seekers to depart was Quaithe the shadowbinder. From her Dany received only a warning.
"Beware," the woman in the red lacquer mask said.
"Of whom?"
"Of all. They shall come day and night to see the wonder that has been born again into the world, and
when they see they shall lust. For dragons are fire made flesh, and fire is power."
When Quaithe too was gone, Ser Jorah said, "She speaks truly, my queen . . . though I like her no more
than the others."
"I do not understand her." Pyat and Xaro had showered Dany with promises from the moment they first
glimpsed her dragons, declaring themselves her loyal servants in all things, but from Quaithe she had
gotten only the rare cryptic word. And it disturbed her that she had never seen the woman's face.
Remember Mirri Maz Duur, she told herself. Remember treachery. She turned to her bloodriders. "We
will keep our own watch so long as we are here. See that no one enters this wing of the palace without
my leave, and take care that the dragons are always well guarded."
"It shall be done, Khaleesi," Aggo said.
"We have seen only the parts of Qarth that Pyat Pree wished us to
see," she went on. "Rakharo, go forth and look on the rest, and tell me what you find. Take good men
with you-and women, to go places where men are forbidden."
"As you say, I do, blood of my blood," said Rakharo.
"Ser Jorah, find the docks and see what manner of ships lay at anchor. It has been half a year since I last
heard tidings from the Seven Kingdoms. Perhaps the gods will have blown some good captain here from
Westeros with a ship to carry us home."
The knight frowned. "That would be no kindness. The Usurper will kill you, sure as sunrise." Mormont
hooked his thumbs through his swordbelt. "My place is here at your side."
"Jhogo can guard me as well. You have more languages than my bloodriders, and the Dothraki mistrust
the sea and those who sail her. Only you can serve me in this. Go among the ships and speak to the
crews, learn where they are from and where they are bound and what manner of men command them."
Reluctantly, the exile nodded. "As you say, my queen."
When all the men had gone, her handmaids stripped off the travelstained silks she wore, and Dany
padded out to where the marble pool sat in the shade of a portico. The water was deliciously cool, and
the pool was stocked with tiny golden fish that nibbled curiously at her skin and made her giggle. It felt


good to close her eyes and float, knowing she could rest as long as she liked. She wondered whether
Aegon's Red Keep had a pool like this, and fragrant gardens full of lavender and mint. It must, surely.
Viserys always said the Seven Kingdoms were more beautiful than any other place in the world.
The thought of home disquieted her. If her sun-and-stars had lived, he would have led his khalasar
across the poison water and swept away her enemies, but his strength had left the world. Her bloodriders
remained, sworn to her for life and skilled in slaughter, but only in the ways of the horselords. The
Dothraki sacked cities and plundered kingdoms, they did not rule them. Dany had no wish to reduce
King's Landing to a blackened ruin full of unquiet ghosts. She had supped enough on tears. I want to
make my kingdom beautiful, to fill it with fat men and pretty maids and laughing children. I want my
people to smile when they see me ride by, the way Viserys said they smiled for my father.
But before she could do that she must conquer.
The Usurper will kill you, sure as sunrise, Mormont had said. Robert had slain her gallant brother
Rhaegar, and one of his creatures had crossed the Dothraki sea to poison her and her unborn son. They
said Robert Baratheon was strong as a bull and fearless in battle, a man who loved nothing better than
war. And with him stood the great lords her
brother had named the Usurper's dogs, cold-eyed Eddard Stark with his frozen heart, and the golden
Lannisters, father and son, so rich, so powerful, so treacherous.
How could she hope to overthrow such men? When Khal Drogo had lived, men trembled and made him
gifts to stay his wrath. If they did not, he took their cities, wealth and wives and all. But his khalasar had
been vast, while hers was meager. Her people had followed her across the red waste as she chased her
comet, and would follow her across the poison water too, but they would not be enough. Even her
dragons might not be enough. Viserys had believed that the realm would rise for its rightful king . . . but
Viserys had been a fool, and fools believe in foolish things.
Her doubts made her shiver. Suddenly the water felt cold to her, and the little fish prickling at her skin
annoying. Dany stood and climbed from the pool. "Irri," she called, "Jhiqui.
As the handmaids toweled her dry and wrapped her in a sandsilk robe, Dany's thoughts went to the
three who had sought her out in the City of Bones. The Bleeding Star led me to Qarth for a purpose.
Here I will find what I need, if I have the strength to take what is offered, and the wisdom to avoid the
traps and snares. If the gods mean for me to conquer, they will provide, they will send me a sign, and if
not . . . if not . . .
It was near evenfall and Dany was feeding her dragons when Irri stepped through the silken curtains to
tell her that Ser Jorah had returned from the docks . . . and not alone. "Send him in, with whomever he
has brought," she said, curious.
When they entered, she was seated on a mound of cushions, her dragons all about her. The man he
brought with him wore a cloak of green and yellow feathers and had skin as black as polished jet. "Your
Grace," the knight said, "I bring you Quhuru Mo, captain of the Cinnamon Wind out of Tall Trees Town."
The black man knelt. "I am greatly honored, my queen," he said; not in the tongue of the Summer Isles,
which Dany did not know, but in the liquid Valyrian of the Nine Free Cities.
"The honor is mine, Quhuru Mo," said Dany in the same language. "Have you come from the Summer
Isles?"


"This is so, Your Grace, but before, not half a year past, we called at Oldtown. From there I bring you a
wondrous gift."
"A gift?"
"A gift of news. Dragonmother, Stormborn, I tell you true, Robert Baratheon is dead."
Outside her walls, dusk was settling over Qarth, but a sun had risen in Dany's heart. "Dead?" she
repeated. In her lap, black Drogon hissed, and
pale smoke rose before her face like a veil. "You are certain? The Usurper is dead?"
"So it is said in Oldtown, and Dorne, and Lys, and all the other ports where we have called."
He sent me poisoned wine, yet I live and he is gone. "What was the manner of his death?" On her
shoulder, pale Viserion flapped wings the color of cream, stirring the air.
"Torn by a monstrous boar whilst hunting in his kingswood, or so I heard in Oldtown. Others say his
queen betrayed him, or his brother, or Lord Stark who was his Hand. Yet all the tales agree in this: King
Robert is dead and in his grave."
Dany had never looked upon the Usurper's face, yet seldom a day had passed when she had not thought
of him. His great shadow had lain across her since the hour of her birth, when she came forth amidst
blood and storm into a world where she no longer had a place. And now this ebony stranger had lifted
that shadow.
"The boy sits the Iron Throne now," Ser Jorah said.
"King Joffrey reigns," Quhuru Mo agreed, "but the Lannisters rule. Robert's brothers have fled King's
Landing. The talk is, they mean to claim the crown. And the Hand has fallen, Lord Stark who was King
Robert's friend. He has been seized for treason."
"Ned Stark a traitor?" Ser Jorah snorted. "Not bloody likely. The Long Summer will come again before
that one would besmirch his precious honor."
"What honor could he have?" Dany said. "He was a traitor to his true king, as were these Lannisters." It
pleased her to hear that the Usurper's dogs were fighting amongst themselves, though she was
unsurprised. The same thing happened when her Drogo died, and his great khalasar tore itself to pieces.
"My brother is dead as well, Viserys who was the true king," she told the Summer Islander. "Khal Drogo
my lord husband killed him with a crown of molten gold." Would her brother have been any wiser, had
he known that the vengeance he had prayed for was so close at hand?
"Then I grieve for you, Dragonmother, and for bleeding Westeros, bereft of its rightful king."
Beneath Dany's gentle fingers, green Rhaegal stared at the stranger with eyes of molten gold. When his
mouth opened, his teeth gleamed like black needles. "When does your ship return to Westeros,
Captain?"
"Not for a year or more, I fear. From here the Cinnamon Wind sails east, to make the trader's circle
round the jade Sea."


"I see," said Dany, disappointed. "I wish you fair winds and good trading, then. You have brought me a
precious gift."
"I have been amply repaid, great queen."
She puzzled at that. "How so?"
His eyes gleamed. "I have seen dragons."
Dany laughed. "And will see more of them one day, I hope. Come to me in King's Landing when I am
on my father's throne, and you shall have a great reward."
The Summer Islander promised he would do so, and kissed her lightly on the fingers as he took his
leave. Jhiqui showed him out, while Ser Jorah Mormont remained.
"Khaleesi, " the knight said when they were alone, "I should not speak so freely of your plans, if I were
you. This man will spread the tale wherever he goes now."
"Let him," she said. "Let the whole world know my purpose. The Usurper is dead, what does it matter?"
"Not every sailor's tale is true," Ser Jorah cautioned, "and even if Robert be truly dead, his son rules in
his place. This changes nothing, truly."
"This changes everything." Dany rose abruptly. Screeching, her dragons uncoiled and spread their wings.
Drogon flapped and clawed up to the lintel over the archway. The others skittered across the floor,
wingtips scrabbling on the marble. "Before, the Seven Kingdoms were like my Drogo's khalasar, a
hundred thousand made as one by his strength. Now they fly to pieces, even as the khalasar did after my
khal lay dead."
"The high lords have always fought. Tell me who's won and I'll tell you what it means. Khaleesi, the
Seven Kingdoms are not going to fall into your hands like so many ripe peaches. You will need a fleet,
gold, armies, alliances-"
"All this I know." She took his hands in hers and looked up into his dark suspicious eyes. Sometimes he
thinks of me as a child he must protect, and sometimes as a woman he would like to bed, but does he
ever truly see me as his queen? "I am not the frightened girl you met in Pentos. I have counted only fifteen
name days, true . . . but I am as old as the crones in the dosh khaleen and as young as my dragons,
Jorah. I have borne a child, burned a khal, and crossed the red waste and the Dothraki sea. Mine is the
blood of the dragon."
"As was your brother's," he said stubbornly.
"I am not Viserys."
"No," he admitted. "There is more of Rhaegar in you, I think, but even Rhaegar could be slain. Robert
proved that on the Trident, with no more than a warhammer. Even dragons can die."
"Dragons die." She stood on her toes to kiss him lightly on an unshaven cheek. "But so do
dragonslayers."


CHAPTER 28
BRAN
Meera moved in a wary circle, her net dangling loose in her left hand, the slender three-pronged frog
spear poised in her right. Summer followed her with his golden eyes, turning, his tail held stiff and tall.
Watching, watching . . .
"Yai!" the girl shouted, the spear darting out. The wolf slid to the left and leapt before she could draw
back the spear. Meera cast her net, the tangles unfolding in the air before her. Summer's leap carried him
into it. He dragged it with him as he slammed into her chest and knocked her over backward. Her spear
went spinning away. The damp grass cushioned her fall but the breath went out of her in an "Oof." The
wolf crouched atop her.
Bran hooted. "You lose."
"She wins," her brother Jojen said. "Summer's snared."
He was right, Bran saw. Thrashing and growling at the net, trying to rip free, Summer was only ensnaring
himself worse. Nor could he bite through. "Let him out."
Laughing, the Reed girl threw her arms around the tangled wolf and rolled them both. Summer gave a
piteous whine, his legs kicking against the cords that bound them. Meera knelt, undid a twist, pulled at a
corner, tugged deftly here and there, and suddenly the direwolf was bounding free.
"Summer, to me." Bran spread his arms. "Watch," he said, an instant before the wolf bowled into him.
He clung with all his strength as the
wolf dragged him bumping through the grass. They wrestled and rolled and clung to each other, one
snarling and yapping, the other laughing. In the end it was Bran sprawled on top, the mud-spattered
direwolf under him. "Good wolf," he panted. Summer licked him across the ear.
Meera shook her head. "Does he never grow angry?"
"Not with me." Bran grabbed the wolf by his ears and Summer snapped at him fiercely, but it was all in
play. "Sometimes he tears my garb but he's never drawn blood."
" Your blood, you mean. If he'd gotten past my net
"He wouldn't hurt you. He knows I like you." All of the other lords and knights had departed within a
day or two of the harvest feast, but the Reeds had stayed to become Bran's constant companions. Jojen
was so solemn that Old Nan called him "little grandfather," but Meera reminded Bran of his sister Arya.
She wasn't scared to get dirty, and she could run and fight and throw as good as a boy. She was older
than Arya, though; almost sixteen, a woman grown. They were both older than Bran, even though his
ninth name day had finally come and gone, but they never treated him like a child.
"I wish you were our wards instead of the Walders." He began to struggle toward the nearest tree. His


dragging and wriggling was unseemly to watch, but when Meera moved to lift him he said, "No, don't
help me." He rolled clumsily and pushed and squirmed backward, using the strength of his arms, until he
was sitting with his back to the trunk of a tall ash. "See, I told you." Summer lay down with his head in
Bran's lap. "I never knew anyone who fought with a net before," he told Meera while he scratched the
direwolf between the ears. "Did your master-atarms teach you net-fighting?"
"My father taught me. We have no knights at Greywater. No masterat-arms, and no maester."
"Who keeps your ravens?"
She smiled. "Ravens can't find Greywater Watch, no more than our enemies can."
"Why not?"
"Because it moves," she told him.
Bran had never heard of a moving castle before. He looked at her uncertainly, but he couldn't tell
whether she was teasing him or not. "I wish I could see it. Do you think your lord father would let me
come visit when the war is over?"
"You would be most welcome, my prince. Then or now."
"Now?" Bran had spent his whole life at Winterfell. He yearned to see far places. "I could ask Ser
Rodrik when he returns." The old knight was off east, trying to set to rights the trouble there. Roose
Bolton's bastard had started it by seizing Lady Hornwood as she returned from the
harvest feast, marrying her that very night even though he was young enough to be her son. Then Lord
Manderly had taken her castle. To protect the Hornwood holdings from the Boltons, he had written, but
Ser Rodrik had been almost as angry with him as with the bastard. "Ser Rodrik might let me go. Maester
Luwin never would."
Sitting cross-legged under the weirwood, Jojen Reed regarded him solemnly. "It would be good if you
left Winterfell, Bran."
"It would?"
"Yes. And sooner rather than later."
"My brother has the greensight," said Meera. "He dreams things that haven't happened, but sometimes
they do."
"There is no sometimes, Meera." A look passed between them; him sad, her defiant.
"Tell me what's going to happen," Bran said.
"I will," said Jojen, "if you'll tell me about your dreams."
The godswood grew quiet. Bran could hear leaves rustling, and Hodor's distant splashing from the hot
pools. He thought of the golden man and the three-eyed crow, remembered the crunch of bones between
his jaws and the coppery taste of blood. "I don't have dreams. Maester Luwin gives me sleeping
draughts."


"Do they help?"
"Sometimes."
Meera said, "All of Winterfell knows you wake at night shouting and sweating, Bran. The women talk of
it at the well, and the guards in their hall."
"Tell us what frightens you so much," said Jojen.
"I don't want to. Anyway, it's only dreams. Maester Luwin says dreams might mean anything or nothing."
"My brother dreams as other boys do, and those dreams might mean anything," Meera said, "but the
green dreams are different."
Jojen's eyes were the color of moss, and sometimes when he looked at you he seemed to be seeing
something else. Like now. "I dreamed of a winged wolf bound to earth with grey stone chains," he said.
"It was a green dream, so I knew it was true. A crow was trying to peck through the chains, but the
stone was too hard and his beak could only chip at them."
"Did the crow have three eyes?"
Jojen nodded.
Summer raised his head from Bran's lap, and gazed at the mudman with his dark golden eyes.
"When I was little I almost died of greywater fever. That was when the crow came to me."
"He came to me after I fell," Bran blurted. "I was asleep for a long
time. He said I had to fly or die, and I woke up, only I was broken and I couldn't fly after all."
"You can if you want to." Picking up her net, Meera shook out the last tangles and began arranging it in
loose folds.
"You are the winged wolf, Bran," said Jojen. "I wasn't sure when we first came, but now I am. The crow
sent us here to break your chains."
"Is the crow at Greywater?"
"No. The crow is in the north."
"At the Wall?" Bran had always wanted to see the Wall. His bastard brother Jon was there now, a man
of the Night's Watch.
"Beyond the Wall." Meera Reed hung the net from her belt. "When Jojen told our lord father what he'd
dreamed, he sent us to Winterfell."
"How would I break the chains, Jojen?" Bran asked.
"Open your eye."


"They are open Can't you see?"
"Two are open." Jojen pointed. "One, two."
"I only have two."
"You have three. The crow gave you the third, but you will not open it." He had a slow soft way of
speaking. "With two eyes you see my face. With three you could see my heart. With two you can see
that oak tree there. With three you could see the acorn the oak grew from and the stump that it will one
day become. With two you see no farther than your walls. With three you would gaze south to the
Summer Sea and north beyond the Wall."
Summer got to his feet. "I don't need to see so far." Bran made a nervous smile. "I'm tired of talking
about crows. Let's talk about wolves. Or lizard-lions. Have you ever hunted one, Meera? We don't have
them here."
Meera plucked her frog spear out of the bushes. "They live in the water. In slow streams and deep
swamps-"
Her brother interrupted. "Did you dream of a lizard-lion?"
"No," said Bran. "I told you, I don't want-"
"Did you dream of a wolf?"
He was making Bran angry. "I don't have to tell you my dreams. I'm the prince. I'm the Stark in
Winterfell."
"Was it Summer?"
"You be quiet."
"The night of the harvest feast, you dreamed you were Summer in the godswood, didn't you?"
"Stop it!" Bran shouted. Summer slid toward the weirwood, his white teeth bared.
Jojen Reed took no mind. "When I touched Summer, I felt you in him. just as you are in him now."
"You couldn't have. I was in bed. I was sleeping."
"You were in the godswood, all in grey."
"It was only a bad dream . . ."
Jojen stood. "I felt you. I felt you fall. Is that what scares you, the falling?"
The falling, Bran thought, and the golden man, the queen's brother, he scares me too, but mostly the
falling. He did not say it, though. How could he? He had not been able to tell Ser Rodrik or Maester
Luwin, and he could not tell the Reeds either. If he didn't talk about it, maybe he would forget. He had
never wanted to remember. It might not even be a true remembering.


"Do you fall every night, Bran?" Joien asked quietly.
A low rumbling growl rose from Summer's throat, and there was no play in it. He stalked forward, all
teeth and hot eyes. Meera stepped between the wolf and her brother, spear in hand. "Keep him back,
Bran."
"Jojen is making him angry."
Meera shook out her net.
"It's your anger, Bran," her brother said. "Your fear."
"It isn't. I'm not a wolf." Yet he'd howled with them in the night, and tasted blood in his wolf dreams.
"Part of you is Summer, and part of Summer is you. You know that, Bran."
Summer rushed forward, but Meera blocked him, jabbing with the three-pronged spear. The wolf
twisted aside, circling, stalking. Meera turned to face him. "Call him back, Bran."
"Summer!" Bran shouted. "To me, Summer!" He slapped an open palm down on the meat of his thigh.
His hand tingled, though his dead leg felt nothing.
The direwolf lunged again, and again Meera's spear darted out. Summer dodged, circled back. The
bushes rustled, and a lean black shape came padding from behind the weirwood, teeth bared. The scent
was strong; his brother had smelled his rage. Bran felt hairs rise on the back of his neck. Meera stood
beside her brother, with wolves to either side. "Bran, call them off."
"I can't!"
"Jojen, up the tree."
"There's no need. Today is not the day I die."
"Do it!" she screamed, and her brother scrambled up the trunk of the weirwood, using the face for his
handholds. The direwolves closed. Meera abandoned spear and net, jumped up, and grabbed the branch
above her head. Shaggy's jaws snapped shut beneath her ankle as she swung up and over the limb.
Summer sat back on his haunches and howled, while Shaggydog worried the net, shaking it in his teeth.
Only then did Bran remember that they were not alone. He cupped hands around his mouth. "Hodor!"
he shouted. "Hodor! Hodor!" He was badly frightened and somehow ashamed. "They won't hurt
Hodor," he assured his treed friends.
A few moments passed before they heard a tuneless humming. Hodor arrived half-dressed and
mud-spattered from his visit to the hot pools, but Bran had never been so glad to see him. "Hodor, help
me. Chase off the wolves. Chase them off."
Hodor went to it gleefully, waving his arms and stamping his huge feet, shouting "Hodor, Hodor," running
first at one wolf and then the other. Shaggydog was the first to flee, slinking back into the foliage with a
final snarl. When Summer had enough, he came back to Bran and lay down beside him.


No sooner did Meera touch ground than she snatched up her spear and net again. Jojen never took his
eyes off Summer. "We will talk again," he promised Bran.
It was the wolves, it wasn't me. He did not understand why they'd gotten so wild. Maybe Maester
Luwin was right to lock them in the godswood. "Hodor," he said, "bring me to Maester Luwin."
The maester's turret below the rookery was one of Bran's favorite places. Luwin was hopelessly untidy,
but his clutter of books and scrolls and bottles was as familiar and comforting to Bran as his bald spot
and the flapping sleeves of his loose grey robes. He liked the ravens too.
He found Luwin perched on a high stool, writing. With Ser Rodrik gone, all of the governance of the
castle had fallen on his shoulders. "My prince," he said when Hodor entered, "you're early for lessons
today." The maester spent several hours every afternoon tutoring Bran, Rickon, and the Walder Freys.
"Hodor, stand still." Bran grasped a wall sconce with both hands and used it to pull himself up and out of
the basket. He hung for a moment by his arms until Hodor carried him to a chair. "Meera says her
brother has the greensight."
Maester Luwin scratched at the side of his nose with his writing quill. "Does she now?"
He nodded. "You told me that the children of the forest had the greensight. I remember."
"Some claimed to have that power. Their wise men were called greenseers."
"Was it magic?"
"Call it that for want of a better word, if you must. At heart it was only a different sort of knowledge."
"What was it?"
Luwin set down his quill. "No one truly knows, Bran. The children
are gone from the world, and their wisdom with them. It had to do with the faces in the trees, we think.
The First Men believed that the greenseers could see through the eyes of the weirwoods. That was why
they cut down the trees whenever they warred upon the children. Supposedly the greenseers also had
power over the beasts of the wood and the birds in the trees. Even fish. Does the Reed boy claim such
powers?"
"No. I don't think. But he has dreams that come true sometimes, Meera says."
"All of us have dreams that come true sometimes. You dreamed of your lord father in the crypts before
we knew he was dead, remember?"
"Rickon did too. We dreamed the same dream."
"Call it greensight, if you wish . . . but remember as well all those tens of thousands of dreams that you
and Rickon have dreamed that did not come true. Do you perchance recall what I taught you about the
chain collar that every maester wears?"
Bran thought for a moment, trying to remember. "A maester forges his chain in the Citadel of Oldtown.
It's a chain because you swear to serve, and it's made of different metals because you serve the realm


and the realm has different sorts of people. Every time you learn something you get another link. Black
iron is for ravenry, silver for healing, gold for sums and numbers. I don't remember them all."
Luwin slid a finger up under his collar and began to turn it, inch by inch. He had a thick neck for a small
man, and the chain was tight, but a few pulls had it all the way around. "This is Valyrian steel," he said
when the link of dark grey metal lay against the apple of his throat. "Only one maester in a hundred wears
such a link. This signifies that I have studied what the Citadel calls the higher mysteries-magic, for want of
a better word. A fascinating pursuit, but of small use, which is why so few maesters trouble themselves
with it.
"All those who study the higher mysteries try their own hand at spells, soon or late. I yielded to the
temptation too, I must confess it. Well, I was a boy, and what boy does not secretly wish to find hidden
powers in himself? I got no more for my efforts than a thousand boys before me, and a thousand since.
Sad to say, magic does not work."
"Sometimes it does," Bran protested. "I had that dream, and Rickon did too. And there are mages and
warlocks in the east . . ."
"There are men who call themselves mages and warlocks," Maester Luwin said. "I had a friend at the
Citadel who could pull a rose out of your ear, but he was no more magical than I was. Oh, to be sure,
there is much we do not understand. The years pass in their hundreds and their thousands, and what does
any man see of life but a few summers, a few winters? We look at mountains and call them eternal, and
so they seem . . . but in the course of time, mountains rise and fall, rivers
change their courses, stars fall from the sky, and great cities sink beneath the sea. Even gods die, we
think. Everything changes.
"Perhaps magic was once a mighty force in the world, but no longer. What little remains is no more than
the wisp of smoke that lingers in the air after a great fire has burned out, and even that is fading. Valyria
was the last ember, and Valyria is gone. The dragons are no more, the giants are dead, the children of the
forest forgotten with all their lore.
"No, my prince. Jojen Reed may have had a dream or two that he believes came true, but he does not
have the greensight. No living man has that power."
Bran said as much to Meera Reed when she came to him at dusk as he sat in his window seat watching
the lights flicker to life. "I'm sorry for what happened with the wolves. Summer shouldn't have tried to
hurt Jojen, but Jojen shouldn't have said all that about my dreams. The crow lied when he said I could fly,
and your brother lied too."
"Or perhaps your maester is wrong."
"He isn't. Even my father relied on his counsel."
"Your father listened, I have no doubt. But in the end, he decided for himself. Bran, will you let me tell
you about a dream Jojen dreamed of you and your fosterling brothers?"
"The Walders aren't my brothers."
She paid that no heed. "You were sitting at supper, but instead of a servant, Maester Luwin brought you
your food. He served you the king's cut off the roast, the meat rare and bloody, but with a savory smell


that made everyone's mouth water. The meat he served the Freys was old and grey and dead. Yet they
liked their supper better than you liked yours."
"I don't understand."
"You will, my brother says. When you do, we'll talk again."
Bran was almost afraid to sit to supper that night, but when he did, it was pigeon pie they set before him.
Everyone else was served the same, and he couldn't see that anything was wrong with the food they
served the Walders. Maester Luwin has the truth of it, he told himself. Nothing bad was coming to
Winterfell, no matter what Jojen said. Bran was relieved . . . but disappointed too. So long as there was
magic, anything could happen. Ghosts could walk, trees could talk, and broken boys could grow up to
be knights. "But there isn't," he said aloud in the darkness of his bed. "There's no magic, and the stories
are just stories."
And he would never walk, nor fly, nor be a knight.
CHAPTER 29
TYRION
The rushes were scratchy under the soles of his bare feet. "My cousin chooses a queer hour to come
visiting," Tyrion told a sleep-befuddled Podrick Payne, who'd doubtless expected to be well roasted for
waking him. "See him to my solar and tell him I'll be down shortly."
It was well past midnight, he judged from the black outside the window. Does Lancel think to find me
drowsy and slow of wit at this hour? he wondered. No, Lance] scarce thinks at all, this is Cersei's doing.
His sister would be disappointed. Even abed, he worked well into the morning-reading by the flickering
light of a candle, scrutinizing the reports of Varys's whisperers, and poring over Littlefinger's books of
accounts until the columns blurred and his eyes ached.
He splashed some tepid water on his face from the basin beside his bed and took his time squatting in
the garderobe, the night air cold on his bare skin. Ser Lancel was sixteen, and not known for his
patience. Let him wait, and grow more anxious in the waiting. When his bowels were empty, Tyrion
slipped on a bedrobe and roughed his thin flaxen hair with his fingers, all the more to look as if he had
wakened from sleep.
Lancel was pacing before the ashes of the hearth, garbed in slashed red velvet with black silk
undersleeves, a jeweled dagger and a gilded scabbard hanging from his swordbelt. "Cousin," Tyrion
greeted him. "Your visits are too few. To what do I owe this undeserved pleasure?"
"Her Grace the Queen Regent has sent me to command you to release
Grand Maester Pycelle." Ser Lancel showed Tyrion a crimson ribbon, bearing Cersei's lion seal
impressed in golden wax. "Here is her warrant."
"So it is." Tyrion waved it away. "I hope my sister is not overtaxing her strength, so soon after her illness.


it would be a great pity if she were to suffer a relapse."
"Her Grace is quite recovered," Ser Lancel said curtly.
"Music to my ears." Though not a tune I'm fond of. I should have given her a larger dose. Tyrion had
hoped for a few more days without Cersei's interference, but he was not too terribly surprised by her
return to health. She was Jaime's twin, after all. He made himself smile pleasantly. "Pod, build us a fire,
the air is too chilly for my taste. Will you take a cup with me, Lancel? I find that mulled wine helps me
sleep."
"I need no help sleeping," Ser Lancel said. "I am come at Her Grace's behest, not to drink with you,
Imp."
Knighthood had made the boy bolder, Tyrion reflected-that, and the sorry part he had played in
murdering King Robert. "Wine does have its dangers." He smiled as he poured. "As to Grand Maester
Pycelle . . . if my sweet sister is so concerned for him, I would have thought she'd come herself. Instead
she sends you. What am I to make of that?"
"Make of it what you will, so long as you release your prisoner. The Grand Maester is a staunch friend
to the Queen Regent, and under her personal protection." A hint of a sneer played about the lad's lips; he
was enjoying this. He takes his lessons from Cersei. "Her Grace will never consent to this outrage. She
reminds you that she is Joffrey's regent."
"As I am Joffrey's Hand."
"The Hand serves," the young knight informed him airily. "The regent rules until the king is of age."
"Perhaps you ought write that down so I'll remember it better." The fire was crackling merrily. "You may
leave us, Pod," Tyrion told his squire. Only when the boy was gone did he turn back to Lancel. "There is
more?"
"Yes. Her Grace bids me inform you that Ser Jacelyn Bywater defied a command issued in the king's
own name."
Which means that Cersei has already ordered Bywater to release Pycelle, and been rebuffed. "I see."
"She insists that the man be removed from his office and placed under arrest for treason. I warn you-"
He set aside his wine cup. "I'll hear no warnings from you, boy."
"Ser," Lancel said stiffly. He touched his sword, perhaps to remind Tyrion that he wore one. "Have a
care how you speak to me, Imp." Doubtless he meant to sound threatening, but that absurd wisp of a
mustache ruined the effect.
"Oh, unhand your sword. One cry from me and Shagga will burst in and kill you. With an axe, not a
wineskin."
Lancel reddened; was he such a fool as to believe his part in Robert's death had gone unnoted? "I am a
knight-"
"So I've noted. Tell me-did Cersei have you knighted before or after she took you into her bed?"


The flicker in Lancel's green eyes was all the admission Tyrion needed. So Varys told it true. Well, no
one can ever claim that my sister does not love her family. "What, nothing to say? No more warnings for
me, ser?"
"You will withdraw these filthy accusations or-"
"Please. Have you given any thought to what Joffrey will do when I tell him you murdered his father to
bed his mother?"
"It was not like that!" Lancel protested, horrified.
"No? What was it like, pray?"
"The queen gave me the strongwine! Your own father Lord Tywin, when I was named the king's squire,
he told me to obey her in everything."
"Did he tell you to fuck her too?" Look at him. Not quite so tall, his features not so fine, and his hair is
sand instead of spun gold, yet still . . . even a poor copy of faime is sweeter than an empty bed, I
suppose. "No, I thought not."
"I never meant . . . I only did as I was bid, I
". . . hated every instant of it, is that what you would have me believe? A high place at court, knighthood,
my sister's legs opening for you at night, oh, yes, it must have been terrible for you." Tyrion pushed
himself to his feet. "Wait here. His Grace will want to hear this."
The defiance went from Lancel all at once. The young knight fell to his knees a frightened boy. "Mercy,
my lord, I beg you."
"Save it for Joffrey. He likes a good beg."
"My lord, it was your sister's bidding, the queen, as you said, but His Grace . . . he'd never understand .
. ."
"Would you have me keep the truth from the king?"
"For my father's sake! I'll leave the city, it will be as if it never happened! I swear, I will end it . . ."
It was hard not to laugh. "I think not."
Now the lad looked lost. "My lord?"
"You heard me. My father told you to obey my sister? Very well, obey her. Stay close to her side, keep
her trust, pleasure her as often as she requires it. No one need ever know . . . so long as you keep faith
with me. I want to know what Cersei is doing. Where she goes, who she sees, what they talk of, what
plans she is hatching. All. And you will be the one to tell me, won't you?"
"Yes, my lord." Lancel spoke without a moment's hesitation. Tyrion liked that. "I will. I swear it. As you
command."


"Rise." Tyrion filled the second cup and pressed it on him. "Drink to our understanding. I promise, there
are no boars in the castle that I know of." Lancel lifted the cup and drank, albeit stiffly. "Smile, cousin.
My sister is a beautiful woman, and it's all for the good of the realm. You could do well out of this.
Knighthood is nothing. If you're clever, you'll have a lordship from me before you're done." Tyrion
swirled the wine in his cup. "We want Cersei to have every faith in you. Go back and tell her I beg her
forgiveness. Tell her that you frightened me, that I want no conflict between us, that henceforth I shall do
nothing without her consent." "But . . . her demands . . .
"Oh, I'll give her Pycelle."
"You will?" Lancel seemed astonished.
Tyrion smiled. "I'll release him on the morrow. I could swear that I hadn't harmed a hair on his head, but
it wouldn't be strictly true. In any case, he's well enough, though I won't vouch for his vigor. The black
cells are not a healthy place for a man his age. Cersei can keep him as a pet or send him to the Wall, I
don't care which, but I won't have him on the council. "
"And Ser Jacelyn?"
"Tell my sister you believe you can win him away from me, given time. That ought to content her for a
while."
"As you say." Lancel finished his wine.
"One last thing. With King Robert dead, it would be most embarrassing should his grieving widow
suddenly grow great with child."
"My lord, I . . . we . . . the queen has commanded me not to
His ears had turned Lannister crimson. "I spill my seed on her belly, my lord."
"A lovely belly, I have no doubt. Moisten it as often as you wish . . . but see that your dew falls nowhere
else. I want no more nephews, is that clear?"
Ser Lancel made a stiff bow and took his leave.
Tyrion allowed himself a moment to feel sorry for the boy. Another fool, and a weakling as well, but he
does not deserve what Cersei and I are doing to him. It was a kindness that his uncle Kevan had two
other sons; this one was unlikely to live out the year. Cersei would have him killed out of hand if she
learned he was betraying her, and if by some grace of the gods she did not, Lancel would never survive
the day Jaime Lannister returned to King's Landing. The only question would be whether Jaime cut him
down in a jealous rage, or Cersei murdered him first to keep Jaime from finding out. Tyrion's silver was
on Cersei.
A restlessness was on him, and Tyrion knew full well he would not get back to sleep tonight. Not here,
in any case. He found Podrick Payne asleep in a chair outside the door of the solar, and shook him by
the shoulder. "Summon Bronn, and then run down to the stables and have two horses saddled."
The squire's eyes were cloudy with sleep. "Horses."
"Those big brown animals that love apples, I'm sure you've seen them. Four legs and a tail. But Bronn


first."
The sellsword was not long in appearing. "Who pissed in your soup?" he demanded.
"Cersei, as ever. You'd think I'd be used to the taste by now, but never mind. My gentle sister seems to
have mistaken me for Ned Stark."
"I hear he was taller."
"Not after Joff took off his head. You ought to have dressed more warmly, the night is chill."
"Are we going somewhere?"
"Are all sellswords as clever as you?"
The city streets were dangerous, but with Bronn beside him Tyrion felt safe enough. The guards let him
out a postern gate in the north wall, and they rode down Shadowblack Lane to the foot of Aegon's High
Hill, and thence onto Pigrun Alley, past rows of shuttered windows and tall timber-and-stone buildings
whose upper stories leaned out so far over the street they almost kissed. The moon seemed to follow
them as they went, playing peek-and-sneak among the chimneys. They encountered no one but a lone
old crone, carrying a dead cat by the tail. She gave them a fearful look, as if she were afraid they might
try to steal her dinner, and slunk off into the shadows without a word.
Tyrion reflected on the men who had been Hand before him, who had proved no match for his sister's
wiles. How could they be? Men like that . . . too honest to live, too noble to shit, Cersei devours such
fools every morning when she breaks her fast. The only way to defeat my sister is to play her own game,
and that was something the Lords Stark and Arryn would never do. Small wonder that both of them
were dead, while Tyrion Lannister had never felt more alive. His stunted legs might make him a comic
grotesque at a harvest ball, but this dance he knew.
Despite the hour, the brothel was crowded. Chataya greeted them pleasantly and escorted them to the
common room. Bronn went upstairs with a dark-eyed girl from Dorne, but Alayaya was busy
entertaining. "She will be so pleased to know you've come," said Chataya. "I will see that the turret room
is made ready for you. Will my lord take a cup of wine while he waits?"
"I will," he said.
The wine was poor stuff compared to the vintages from the Arbor the
house normally served. "You must forgive us, my lord," Chataya said. "I cannot find good wine at any
price of late."
"You are not alone in that, I fear."
Chataya commiserated with him a moment, then excused herself and glided off. A handsome woman,
Tyrion reflected as he watched her go. He had seldom seen such elegance and dignity in a whore.
Though to be sure, she saw herself more as a kind of priestess. Perhaps that is the secret. It is not what
we do, so much as why we do it. Somehow that thought comforted him.
A few of the other patrons were giving him sideways looks. The last time he ventured out, a man had
spit on him . . . well, had tried to. Instead he'd spit on Bronn, and in future would do his spitting without


teeth.
"Is milord feeling unlove
?" Dancy slid into his lap and nibbled at his ear. "I have a cure for that."
Smiling, Tyrion shook his head. "You are too beautiful for words, sweetling, but I've grown fond of
Alayaya's remedy."
"You've never tried mine. Milord never chooses anyone but 'Yaya. She's good but I'm better, don't you
want to see?"
"Next time, perhaps." Tyrion had no doubt that Dancy would be a lively handful. She was pug-nosed
and bouncy, with freckles and a mane of thick red hair that tumbled down past her waist. But he had
Shae waiting for him at the manse.
Giggling, she put her hand between his thighs and squeezed him through his breeches. "I don't think he
wants to wait till next time," she announced. "He wants to come out and count all my freckles, I think."
"Dancy." Alayaya stood in the doorway, dark and cool in gauzy green silk. "His lordship is come to visit
me."
Tyrion gently disentangled himself from the other girl and stood. Dancy did not seem to mind. "Next
time," she reminded him. She put a finger in her mouth and sucked it.
As the black-skinned girl led him up the stairs, she said, "Poor Dancy. She has a fortnight to get my lord
to choose her. Elsewise she loses her black pearls to Marei."
Marei was a cool, pale, delicate girl Tyrion had noticed once or twice. Green eyes and porcelain skin,
long straight silvery hair, very lovely, but too solemn by half. "Id hate to have the poor child lose her
pearls on account of me."
"Then take her upstairs next time."
"Maybe I will."
She smiled. "I think not, my lord."
She's right, Tyrion thought, I won't. Shae may be only a whore, but I am faithful to her after my fashion.
In the turret room, as he opened the door of the wardrobe, he looked at Alayaya curiously. "What do
you do while I'm gone?"
She raised her arms and stretched like some sleek black cat. "Sleep. I am much better rested since you
began to visit us, my lord. And Marei is teaching us to read, perhaps soon I will be able to pass the time
with a book."
"Sleep is good," he said. "And books are better." He gave her a quick kiss on the cheek. Then it was
down the shaft and through the tunnel.
As he left the stable on his piebald gelding, Tyrion heard the sound of music drifting over the rooftops. It


was pleasant to think that men still sang, even in the midst of butchery and famine. Remembered notes
filled his head, and for a moment he could almost hear Tysha as she'd sung to him half a lifetime ago. He
reined up to listen. The tune was wrong, the words too faint to hear. A different song then, and why not?
His sweet innocent Tysha had been a lie start to finish, only a whore his brother Jaime had hired to make
him a man.
I'm free of Tysha now, he thought. She's haunted me half my life, but I don't need her anymore, no more
than I need Alayaya or Dancy or Marei, or the hundreds like them I've bedded with over the years. I
have Shae now Shae.
The gates of the manse were closed and barred. Tyrion pounded until the ornate bronze eye clacked
open. "It's me." The man who admitted him was one of Varys's prettier finds, a Braavosi daggerman with
a harelip and a lazy eye. Tyrion had wanted no handsome young guardsmen loitering about Shae day
after day. "Find me old, ugly, scarred men, preferably impotent," he had told the eunuch. "Men who
prefer boys. Or men who prefer sheep, for that matter." Varys had not managed to come up with any
sheeplovers, but he did find a eunuch strangler and a pair of foulsmelling Ibbenese who were as fond of
axes as they were of each other. The others were as choice a lot of mercenaries as ever graced a
dungeon, each uglier than the last. When Varys had paraded them before him, Tyrion had been afraid
he'd gone too far, but Shae had never uttered a word of complaint. And why would she? She has never
complained of me, and I'm more hideous than all her guards together. Perhaps she does not even see
ugliness.
Even so, Tyrion would sooner have used some of his mountain clansmen to guard the manse; Chella's
Black Ears perhaps, or the Moon Brothers. He had more faith in their iron loyalties and sense of honor
than in the greed of sellswords. The risk was too great, however. All King's Landing knew the wildlings
were his. If he sent the Black Ears here, it would only be a matter of time until the whole city knew the
King's Hand was keeping a concubine.
One of the Ibbenese took his horse. "Have you woken her?" Tyrion asked him.
"No, m'lord."
"Good."
The fire in the bedchamber had burned down to embers, but the room was still warm. Shae had kicked
off her blankets and sheets as she slept. She lay nude atop the featherbed, the soft curves of her young
body limned in the faint glow from the hearth. Tyrion stood in the door and drank in the sight of her.
Younger than Marei, sweeter than Dancy, more beautiful than Alayaya, she's all I need and more. How
could a whore look so clean and sweet and innocent, he wondered?
He had not intended to disturb her, but the sight of her was enough to make him hard. He let his
garments fall to the floor, then crawled onto the bed and gently pushed her legs apart and kissed her
between the thighs. Shae murmured in her sleep. He kissed her again, and licked at her secret sweetness,
on and on until his beard and her cunt were both soaked. When she gave a soft moan and shuddered, he
climbed up and thrust himself inside her and exploded almost at once.
Her eyes were open. She smiled and stroked his head and whispered, "I just had the sweetest dream,
m'lord."
Tyrion nipped at her small hard nipple and nestled his head on her shoulder. He did not pull out of her;
would that he never had to pull out of her. "This is no dream," he promised her. It is real, all of it, he


thought, the wars, the intrigues, the great bloody game, and me in the center of it . . . me, the dwarf, the
monster, the one they scorned and laughed at, but now I hold it all, the power, the city, the girl. This was
what I was made for, and gods forgive me, but I do love it . . .
And her. And her.
CHAPTER 30
ARYA
Whatever names Harren the Black had meant to give his towers were long forgotten. They were called
the Tower of Dread, the Widow's Tower, the Wailing Tower, the Tower of Ghosts, and Kingspyre
Tower. Arya slept in a shallow niche in the cavernous vaults beneath the Wailing Tower, on a bed of
straw. She had water to wash in whenever she liked, a chunk of soap. The work was hard, but no harder
than walking miles every day. Weasel did not need to find worms and bugs to eat, as Arry had; there
was bread every day, and barley stews with bits of carrot and turnip, and once a fortnight even a bite of
meat.
Hot Pie ate even better; he was where he belonged, in the kitchens, a round stone building with a domed
roof that was a world unto itself. Arya took her meals at a trestle table in the undercroft with Weese and
his other charges, but sometimes she would be chosen to help fetch their food, and she and Hot Pie
could steal a moment to talk. He could never remember that she was now Weasel and kept calling her
Arry, even though he knew she was a girl. Once he tried to slip her a hot apple tart, but he made such a
clumsy job of it that two of the cooks saw. They took the tart away and beat him with a big wooden
spoon.
Gendry had been sent to the forge; Arya seldom saw him. As for those she served with, she did not
even want to know their names. That only made it hurt worse when they died. Most of them were older
than she was and content to let her alone.
Harrenhal was vast, much of it far gone in decay. Lady Whent had held the castle as bannerman to
House Tully, but she'd used only the lower thirds of two of the five towers, and let the rest go to ruin.
Now she was fled, and the small household she'd left could not begin to tend the needs of all the knights,
lords, and highborn prisoners Lord Tywin had brought, so the Lannisters must forage for servants as well
as for plunder and provender. The talk was that Lord Tywin planned to restore Harrenhal to glory, and
make it his new seat once the war was done.
Weese used Arya to run messages, draw water, and fetch food, and sometimes to serve at table in the
Barracks Hall above the armory, where the men-at-arms took their meals. But most of her work was
cleaning. The ground floor of the Wailing Tower was given over to storerooms and granaries, and two
floors above housed part of the garrison, but the upper stories had not been occupied for eighty years.
Now Lord Tywin had commanded that they be made fit for habitation again. There were floors to be
scrubbed, grime to be washed off windows, broken chairs and rotted beds to be carried off. The
topmost story was infested with nests of the huge black bats that House Whent had used for its sigil, and
there were rats in the cellars as well . . . and ghosts, some said, the spirits of Harren the Black and his
sons.


Arya thought that was stupid. Harren and his sons had died in Kingspyre Tower, that was why it had
that name, so why should they cross the yard to haunt her? The Wailing Tower only wailed when the
wind blew from the north, and that was just the sound the air made blowing through the cracks in the
stones where they had fissured from the heat. if there were ghosts in Harrenhal, they never troubled her.
It was the living men she feared, Weese and Ser Gregor Clegane and Lord Tywin Lannister himself, who
kept his apartments in Kingspyre Tower, still the tallest and mightiest of all, though lopsided beneath the
weight of the slagged stone that made it look like some giant half-melted black candle.
She wondered what Lord Tywin would do if she marched up to him and confessed to being Arya Stark,
but she knew she'd never get near enough to talk to him, and anyhow he'd never believe her if she did,
and afterward Weese would beat her bloody.
In his own small strutting way, Weese was nearly as scary as Ser Gregor. The Mountain swatted men
like flies, but most of the time he did not even seem to know the fly was there. Weese always knew you
were there, and what you were doing, and sometimes what you were thinking. He would hit at the
slightest provocation, and he had a dog who was near as bad as he was, an ugly spotted bitch that
smelled worse than any dog Arya had ever known. Once she saw him set the dog on a latrine boy who'd
annoyed him. She tore a big chunk out of the boy's calf while Weese laughed.
It took him only three days to earn the place of honor in her nightly prayers. "Weese," she would
whisper, first of all. "Dunsen, Chiswyck, Polliver, Raff the Sweetling. The Tickler and the Hound. Ser
Gregor, Ser Amory, Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, King Joffrey, Queen Cersei." If she let herself forget even one
of them, how would she ever find him again to kill him?
On the road Arya had felt like a sheep, but Harrenbal turned her into a mouse. She was grey as a mouse
in her scratchy wool shift, and like a mouse she kept to the crannies and crevices and dark holes of the
castle, scurrying out of the way of the mighty.
Sometimes she thought they were all mice within those thick walls, even the knights and the great lords.
The size of the castle made even Gregor Clegane seem small. Harrenhal covered thrice as much ground
as Winterfell, and its buildings were so much larger they could scarcely be compared. Its stables housed
a thousand horses, its godswood covered twenty acres, its kitchens were as large as Winterfell's Great
Hall, and its own great hall, grandly named the Hall of a Hundred Hearths even though it only had thirty
and some (Arya had tried to count them, twice, but she came up with thirty-three once and thirty-five the
other time) was so cavernous that Lord Tywin could have feasted his entire host, though he never did.
Walls, doors, halls, steps, everything was built to an inhuman scale that made Arya remember the stories
Old Nan used to tell of the giants who lived beyond the Wall.
And as lords and ladies never notice the little grey mice under their feet, Arya heard all sorts of secrets
just by keeping her ears open as she went about her duties. Pretty Pia from the buttery was a slut who
was working her way through every knight in the castle. The wife of the gaoler was with child, but the
real father was either Ser Alyn Stackspear or a singer called Whitesmile Wat. Lord Lefford made mock
of ghosts at table, but always kept a candle burning by his bed. Ser Dunaver's squire Jodge could not
hold his water when he slept. The cooks despised Ser Harys Swyft and spit in all his food. once she even
overheard Maester Tothmure's serving girl confiding to her brother about some message that said Joffrey
was a bastard and not the rightful king at all. "Lord Tywin told him to burn the letter and never speak
such filth again," the girl whispered.
King Robert's brothers Stannis and Renly had joined the fighting, she heard. "And both of them kings
now," Weese said. "Realm's got more kings than a castle's got rats." Even Lannister men questioned how
long Joffrey would hold the Iron Throne. "The lad's got no army but them gold cloaks, and he's ruled by


a eunuch, a dwarf, and a woman," she heard a lordling mutter in his cups. "What good will the likes of
them be if it comes to battle?" There was always talk of Beric Dondarrion. A fat
archer once said the Bloody Mummers had slain him, but the others only laughed. "Lorch killed the man
at Rushing Falls, and the Mountain's slain him twice. Got me a silver stag says he don't stay dead this time
neither."
Arya did not know who Bloody Mummers were until a fortnight later, when the queerest company of
men she'd ever seen arrived at Harrenhal. Beneath the standard of a black goat with bloody horns rode
copper men with bells in their braids; lancers astride striped black-and-white horses; bowmen with
powdered cheeks; squat hairy men with shaggy shields; brown-skinned men in feathered cloaks; a wispy
fool in green-and-pink motley; swordsmen with fantastic forked beards dyed green and purple and silver;
spearmen with colored scars that covered their cheeks; a slender man in septon's robes, a fatherly one in
maester's grey, and a sickly one whose leather cloak was fringed with long blond hair.
At their head was a man stick-thin and very tall, with a drawn emaciated face made even longer by the
ropy black beard that grew from his pointed chin nearly to his waist. The helm that hung from his saddle
horn was black steel, fashioned in the shape of a goat's head. About his neck he wore a chain made of
linked coins of many different sizes, shapes, and metals, and his horse was one of the strange
black-and-white ones.
"You don't want to know that lot, Weasel," Weese said when he saw her looking at the goat-helmed
man. Two of his drinking friends were with him, men-at-arms in service to Lord Lefford.
"Who are they?" she asked.
One of the soldiers laughed. "The Footmen, girl. Toes of the Goat. Lord Tywin's Bloody Mummers."
"Pease for wits. You get her flayed, you can scrub the bloody steps," said Weese. "They're sellswords,
Weasel girl. Call themselves the Brave Companions. Don't use them other names where they can hear, or
they'll hurt you bad. The goat-helm's their captain, Lord Vargo Hoat."
"He's no fucking lord," said the second soldier. "I heard Ser Amory say so. He's just some sellsword
with a mouth full of slobber and a high opinion of hisself."
"Aye," said Weese, "but she better call him lord if she wants to keep all her parts."
Arya looked at Vargo Hoat again. How many monsters does Lord 7~7win have?
The Brave Companions were housed in the Widow's Tower, so Arya need not serve them. She was
glad of that; on the very night they arrived, fighting broke out between the sellswords and some Lannister
men. Ser Harys Swyft's squire was stabbed to death and two of the Bloody
Mummers were wounded. The next morning Lord Tywin hanged them both from the gatehouse walls,
along with one of Lord Lydden's archers. Weese said the archer had started all the trouble by taunting
the sellswords over Beric Dondarrion. After the hanged men had stopped kicking, Vargo Hoat and Ser
Harys embraced and kissed and swore to love each other always as Lord Tywin looked on. Arya
thought it was funny the way Vargo Hoat lisped and slobbered, but she knew better than to laugh.
The Bloody Mummers did not linger long at Harrenhal, but before they rode out again, Arya heard one
of them saying how a northern army under Roose Bolton had occupied the ruby ford of the Trident. "If


he crosses, Lord Tywin will smash him again like he did on the Green Fork," a Lannister bowmen said,
but his fellows jeered him down. "Bolton'll never cross, not till the Young Wolf marches from Riverrun
with his wild northmen and all them wolves."
Arya had not known her brother was so near. Riverrun was much closer than Winterfell, though she was
not certain where it lay in relation to Harrenhal. I could find out somehow, I know I could, if only I could
get away. When she thought of seeing Robb's face again Arya had to bite her lip. And I want to see Ion
too, and Bran and Rickon, and Mother. Even Sansa . . . I'll kiss her and beg her pardons like a proper
lady, she'll like that.
From the courtyard talk she'd learned that the upper chambers of the Tower of Dread housed three
dozen captives taken during some battle on the Green Fork of the Trident. Most had been given freedom
of the castle in return for their pledge not to attempt escape. They vowed not to escape, Arya told
herself, but they never swore not to help me escape.
The captives ate at their own table in the Hall of a Hundred Hearths, and could often be seen about the
grounds. Four brothers took their exercise together every day, fighting with staves and wooden shields in
the Flowstone Yard. Three of them were Freys of the Crossing, the fourth their bastard brother. They
were only there a short time, though; one morning two other brothers arrived under a peace banner with
a chest of gold, and ransomed them from the knights who'd captured them. The six Freys all left together.
No one ransomed the northmen, though. One fat lordling haunted the kitchens, Hot Pie told her, always
looking for a morsel. His mustache was so bushy that it covered his mouth, and the clasp that held his
cloak was a silver-and-sapphire trident. He belonged to Lord Tywin, but the fierce, bearded young man
who liked to walk the battlements alone in a black cloak patterned with white suns had been taken by
some hedge knight who meant to get rich off him. Sansa would have known who he
was, and the fat one too, but Arya had never taken much interest in titles and sigils. Whenever Septa
Mordane had gone on about the history of this house and that house, she was inclined to drift and dream
and wonder when the lesson would be done.
She did remember Lord Cerwyn, though. His lands had been close to Winterfell, so he and his son Cley
had often visited. Yet as fate would have it, he was the only captive who was never seen; he was abed in
a tower cell, recovering from a wound. For days and days Arya tried to work out how she might steal
past the door guards to see him. If he knew her, he would be honor bound to help her. A lord would
have gold for a certainty, they all did; perhaps he would pay some of Lord Tywin's own sellswords to
take her to Riverrun. Father had always said that most sellswords would betray anyone for enough gold.
Then one morning she spied three women in the cowled grey robes of the silent sisters loading a corpse
into their wagon. The body was sewn into a cloak of the finest silk, decorated with a battle-axe sigil.
When Arya asked who it was, one of the guards told her that Lord Cerwyn had died. The words felt like
a kick in the belly. He could never have helped you anyway, she thought as the sisters drove the wagon
through the gate. He couldn't even help himself, you stupid mouse.
After that it was back to scrubbing and scurrying and listening at doors. Lord Tywin would soon march
on Riverrun, she heard. or he would drive south to Highgarden, no one would ever expect that. No, he
must defend King's Landing, Stannis was the greatest threat. He'd sent Gregor Clegane and Vargo Hoat
to destroy Roose Bolton and remove the dagger from his back. He'd sent ravens to the Eyrie, he meant
to wed the Lady Lysa Arryn and win the Vale. He'd bought a ton of silver to forge magic swords that
would slay the Stark wargs. He was writing Lady Stark to make a peace, the Kingslayer would soon be
freed.


Though ravens came and went every day, Lord Tywin himself spent most of his days behind closed
doors with his war council. Arya caught glimpses of him, but always from afar-once walking the walls in
the company of three maesters and the fat captive with the bushy mustache, once riding out with his lords
bannermen to visit the encampments, but most often standing in an arch of the covered gallery watching
men at practice in the yard below. He stood with his hands locked together on the gold pommel of his
longsword. They said Lord Tywin loved gold most of all; he even shit gold, she heard one squire jest.
The Lannister lord was strong-looking for an old man, with stiff golden whiskers and a bald head. There
was something in his face that reminded Arya of her own father, even though they looked nothing alike.
He has a lord's face, that's all, she told herself. She remembered hearing her lady mother tell Father to
put on his lord's face and go deal with some matter. Father had
laughed at that. She could not imagine Lord Tywin ever laughing at anything.
one afternoon, while she was waiting her turn to draw a pail of water from the well, she heard the hinges
of the east gate groaning. A party of men rode under the portcullis at a walk. When she spied the
manticore crawling across the shield of their leader, a stab of hate shot through her.
In the light of day, Ser Amory Lorch looked less frightening than he had by torchlight, but he still had the
pig's eyes she recalled. One of the women said that his men had ridden all the way around the lake
chasing Beric Dondarrion and slaying rebels. We weren't rebels, Arya thought. We were the Night's
Watch; the Night's Watch takes no side. Ser Amory had fewer men than she remembered, though, and
many wounded. I hope their wounds fester. I hope they all die.
Then she saw the three near the end of the column.
Rorge had donned a black halffielm with a broad iron nasal that made it hard to see that he did not have
a nose. Biter rode ponderously beside him on a destrier that looked ready to collapse under his weight.
Halfhealed burns covered his body, making him even more hideous than before.
But Jaqen H'ghar still smiled. His garb was still ragged and filthy, but he had found time to wash and
brush his hair. It streamed down across his shoulders, red and white and shiny, and Arya heard the girls
giggling to each other in admiration.
I should have let the fire have them. Gendry said to, I should have listened. If she hadn't thrown them
that axe they'd all be dead. For a moment she was afraid, but they rode past her without a flicker of
interest. Only Jaqen H'ghar so much as glanced in her direction, and his eyes passed right over her. He
does not know me, she thought. Arry was a fierce little boy with a sword, and I'm just a grey mouse girl
with a pail.
She spent the rest of that day scrubbing steps inside the Wailing Tower. By evenfall her hands were raw
and bleeding and her arms so sore they trembled when she lugged the pail back to the cellar. Too tired
even for food, Arya begged Weese's pardons and crawled into her straw to sleep. "Weese," she
yawned. "Dunsen, Chiswyck, Polliver, Raff the Sweetling. The Tickler and the Hound. Ser Gregor, Ser
Amory, Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, King Joffrey, Queen Cersei." She thought she might add three more names
to her prayer, but she was too tired to decide tonight.
Arya was dreaming of wolves running wild through the wood when a strong hand clamped down over
her mouth like smooth warm stone, solid and unyielding. She woke at once, squirming and struggling. "A
girl says nothing," a voice whispered close behind her ear. "A girl keeps her lips closed, no one hears,
and friends may talk in secret. Yes?"


Heart pounding, Arya managed the tiniest of nods.
Jaqen H'ghar took his hand away. The cellar was black as pitch and she could not see his face, even
inches away. She could smell him, though; his skin smelled clean and soapy, and he had scented his hair.
"A boy becomes a girl," he murmured.
"I was always a girl. I didn't think you saw me."
"A man sees. A man knows."
She remembered that she hated him. "You scared me. You're one of them now, I should have let you
burn. What are you doing here? Go away or I'll yell for Weese."
"A man pays his debts. A man owes three."
"Three? "
"The Red God has his due, sweet girl, and only death may pay for life. This girl took three that were his.
This girl must give three in their places. Speak the names, and a man will do the rest."
He wants to help me, Arya realized with a rush of hope that made her dizzy. "Take me to Riverrun, it's
not far, if we stole some horses we could-"
He laid a finger on her lips. "Three lives you shall have of me. No more, no less. Three and we are done.
So a girl must ponder." He kissed her hair softly. "But not too long."
By the time Arya lit her stub of a candle, only a faint smell remained of him, a whiff of ginger and cloves
lingering in the air. The woman in the next niche rolled over on her straw and complained of the light, so
Arya blew it out. When she closed her eyes, she saw faces swimming before her. Joffrey and his mother,
Ilyn Payne and Meryn Trant and Sandor Clegane . . . but they were in King's Landing hundreds of miles
away, and Ser Gregor had lingered only a few nights before departing again for more foraging, taking
Raff and Chiswyck and the Tickler with him. Ser Amory Lorch was here, though, and she hated him
almost as much. Didn't she? She wasn't certain. And there was always Weese.
She thought of him again the next morning, when lack of sleep made her yawn. "Weasel," Weese purred,
"next time I see that mouth droop open, I'll pull out your tongue and feed it to my bitch." He twisted her
ear between his fingers to make certain she'd heard, and told her to get back to those steps, he wanted
them clean down to the third landing by nightfall.
As she worked, Arya thought about the people she wanted dead. She pretended she could see their
faces on the steps, and scrubbed harder to wipe them away. The Starks were at war with the Lannisters
and she was a Stark, so she should kill as many Lannisters as she could, that was what you did in wars.
But she didn't think she should trust Jaqen. I should kill them myself. Whenever her father had
condemned a man to death, he did the deed himself with Ice, his greatsword. "If you would
take a man's life, you owe it to him to look him in the face and hear his last words," she'd heard him tell
Robb and Jon once.
The next day she avoided Jaqen H'ghar, and the day after that. It was not hard. She was very small and
Harrenhal was very large, full of places where a mouse could hide.


And then Ser Gregor returned, earlier than expected, driving a herd of goats this time in place of a herd
of prisoners. She heard he'd lost four men in one of Lord Beric's night raids, but those Arya hated
returned unscathed and took up residence on the second floor of the Wailing Tower. Weese saw that
they were well supplied with drink. "They always have a good thirst, that lot," he grumbled. "Weasel, go
up and ask if they've got any clothes that need mending, I'll have the women see to it."
Arya ran up her well-scrubbed steps. No one paid her any mind when she entered. Chiswyck was
seated by the fire with a horn of ale to hand, telling one of his funny stories. She dared not interrupt,
unless she wanted a bloody lip.
"After the Hand's tourney, it were, before the war come," Chiswyck was saying. "We were on our ways
back west, seven of us with Ser Gregor. Raff was with me, and young Joss Stilwood, he'd squired for
Ser in the lists. Well, we come on this pisswater river, running high on account there'd been rains. No
way to ford, but there's an alehouse near, so there we repair. Ser rousts the brewer and tells him to keep
our horns full till the waters fall, and you should see the man's pig eyes shine at the sight o' silver. So he's
fetching us ale, him and his daughter, and poor thin stuff it is, no more'n brown piss, which don't make me
any happier, nor Ser neither. And all the time this brewer's saying how glad he is to have us, custom
being slow on account o' them rains. The fool won't shut his yap, not him, though Ser is saying not a
word, just brooding on the Knight o' Pansies and that bugger's trick he played. You can see how tight his
mouth sits, so me and the other lads we know better'n to say a squeak to him, but this brewer he's got to
talk, he even asks how m'lord fared in the jousting. Ser just gave him this look." Chiswyck cackled,
quaffed his ale, and wiped the foam away with the back of his hand. "Meanwhile, this daughter of his has
been fetching and pouring, a fat little thing, eighteen or so-"
"Thirteen, more like," Raff the Sweetling drawled.
"Well, be that as it may, she's not much to look at, but Eggon's been drinking and gets to touching her,
and might be I did a little touching meself, and Raff's telling young Stilwood that he ought t' drag the girl
upstairs and make hisself a man, giving the lad courage as it were. Finally Joss reaches up under her skirt,
and she shrieks and drops her flagon and goes running off to the kitchen. Well, it would have ended
right there, only what does the old fool do but he goes to Ser and asks him to make us leave the girl
alone, him being an anointed knight and all such.
"Ser Gregor, he wasn't paying no mind to none of our fun, but now he looks, you know how he does,
and he commands that the girl be brought before him. Now the old man has to drag her out of the
kitchen, and no one to blame but hisself. Ser looks her over and says, 'So this is the whore you're so
concerned for' and this besotted old fool says, 'My Layna's no whore, ser' right to Gregor's face. Ser, he
never blinks, just says, 'She is now' tosses the old man another silver, rips the dress off the wench, and
takes her right there on the table in front of her da, her flopping and wiggling like a rabbit and making
these noises. The look on the old man's face, I laughed so hard ale was coming out me nose. Then this
boy hears the noise, the son I figure, and comes rushing up from the cellar, so Raff has to stick a dirk in
his belly. By then Ser's done, so he goes back to his drinking and we all have a turn. Tobbot, you know
how he is, he flops her over and goes in the back way. The girl was done fighting by the time I had her,
maybe she'd decided she liked it after all, though to tell the truth I wouldn't have minded a little wiggling.
And now here's the best bit . . . when it's all done, Ser tells the old man that he wants his change. The girl
wasn't worth a silver, he says . . . and damned if that old man didn't fetch a fistful of coppers, beg mlord's
pardon, and thank him for the custom!"
The men all roared, none louder than Chiswyck himself, who laughed so hard at his own story that snot


dribbled from his nose down into his scraggy grey beard. Arya stood in the shadows of the stairwell and
watched him. She crept back down to the cellars without saying a word. When Weese found that she
hadn't asked about the clothes, he yanked down her breeches and caned her until blood ran down her
thighs, but Arya closed her eyes and thought of all the sayings Syrio had taught her, so she scarcely felt it.
Two nights later, he sent her to the Barracks Hall to serve at table. She was carrying a flagon of wine
and pouring when she glimpsed Jaqen H'ghar at his trencher across the aisle. Chewing her lip, Arya
glanced around warily to make certain Weese was not in sight. Fear cuts deeper than swords, she told
herself.
She took a step, and another, and with each she felt less a mouse. She worked her way down the
bench, filling wine cups. Rorge sat to Jaqen's right, deep drunk, but he took no note of her. Arya leaned
close and whispered, "Chiswyck," right in Jaqen's ear. The Lorathi gave no sign that he had heard.
When her flagon was empty, Arya hurried down to the cellars to refill
it from the cask, and quickly returned to her pouring. No one had died of thirst while she was gone, nor
even noted her brief absence.
Nothing happened the next day, nor the day after, but on the third day Arya went to the kitchens with
Weese to fetch their dinner. "One of the Mountain's men fell off a wallwalk last night and broke his fool
neck," she heard Weese tell a cook.
"Drunk?" the woman asked.
"No more'n usual. Some are saying it was Harren's ghost flung him down." He snorted to show what he
thought of such notions.
It wasn't Harren, Arya wanted to say, it was me. She had killed Chiswyck with a whisper, and she
would kill two more before she was through. I'm the ghost in Harrenhal, she thought. And that night,
there was one less name to hate.
CHAPTER 31
CATELYN
The meeting place was a grassy sward dotted with pale grey mushrooms and the raw stumps of felled
trees.
"We are the first, my lady," Hallis Mollen said as they reined up amidst the stumps, alone between the
armies. The direwolf banner of House Stark flapped and fluttered atop the lance he bore. Catelyn could
not see the sea from here, but she could feel how close it was. The smell of salt was heavy on the wind
gusting from the east.
Stannis Baratheon's foragers had cut the trees down for his siege towers and catapults. Catelyn
wondered how long the grove had stood, and whether Ned had rested here when he led his host south to
lift the last siege of Storm's End. He had won a great victory that day, all the greater for being bloodless.


Gods grant that I shall do the same, Catelyn prayed. Her own liege men thought she was mad even to
come. "This is no fight of ours, my lady," Ser Wendel Manderly had said. "I know the king would not
wish his mother to put herself at risk."
"We are all at risk," she told him, perhaps too sharply. "Do you think I wish to be here, ser?" I belong at
Riverrun with my dying father, at Winterfell with my sons. "Robb sent me south to speak for him, and
speak for him I shall." It would be no easy thing to forge a peace between these brothers, Catelyn knew,
yet for the good of the realm, it must be tried.
Across rain-sodden flelds and stony ridges, she could see the great castle of Storm's End rearing up
against the sky, its back to the unseen sea. Beneath that mass of pale grey stone, the encircling army of
Lord Stannis Baratheon looked as small and insignificant as mice with banners.
The songs said that Storm's End had been raised in ancient days by Durran, the first Storm King, who
had won the love of the fair Elenei, daughter of the sea god and the goddess of the wind. On the night of
their wedding, Elenei had yielded her maidenhood to a mortal's love and thus doomed herself to a
mortal's death, and her grieving parents had unleashed their wrath and sent the winds and waters to
batter down Durran's hold. His friends and brothers and wedding guests were crushed beneath collapsing
walls or blown out to sea, but Elenei sheltered Durran within her arms so he took no harm, and when the
dawn came at last he declared war upon the gods and vowed to rebuild.
Five more castles he built, each larger and stronger than the last, only to see them smashed asunder
when the gale winds came howling up Shipbreaker Bay, driving great walls of water before them. His
lords pleaded with him to build inland; his priests told him he must placate the gods by giving Elenei back
to the sea; even his smallfolk begged him to relent. Durran would have none of it. A seventh castle he
raised, most massive of all. Some said the children of the forest helped him build it, shaping the stones
with magic; others claimed that a small boy told him what he must do, a boy who would grow to be Bran
the Builder. No matter how the tale was told, the end was the same. Though the angry gods threw storm
after storm against it, the seventh castle stood defiant, and Durran Godsgrief and fair Elenei dwelt there
together until the end of their days.
Gods do not forget, and still the gales came raging up the narrow sea. Yet Storm's End endured, through
centuries and tens of centuries, a castle like no other. Its great curtain wall was a hundred feet high,
unbroken by arrow slit or postern, everywhere rounded, curving, smooth, its stones fit so cunningly
together that nowhere was crevice nor angle nor gap by which the wind might enter. That wall was said
to be forty feet thick at its narrowest, and near eighty on the seaward face, a double course of stones
with an inner core of sand and rubble. Within that mighty bulwark, the kitchens and stables and yards
sheltered safe from wind and wave. Of towers, there was but one, a colossal drum tower, windowless
where it faced the sea, so large that it was granary and barracks and feast hall and lord's dwelling all in
one, crowned by massive battlements that made it look from afar like a spiked flst atop an upthrust arm.
"My lady," Hal Mollen called. Two riders had emerged from the tidy
little camp beneath the castle, and were coming toward them at a slow walk. "That will be King Stannis."
"No doubt." Catelyn watched them come. Stannis it must be, yet that is not the Baratheon banner. It was
a bright yellow, not the rich gold of Renly's standards, and the device it bore was red, though she could
not make out its shape.
Renly would be last to arrive. He had told her as much when she set out. He did not propose to mount


his horse until he saw his brother well on his way. The first to arrive must wait on the other, and Renly
would do no waiting. It is a sort of game kings play, she told herself. Well, she was no king, so she need
not play it. Catelyn was practiced at waiting.
As he neared, she saw that Stannis wore a crown of red gold with points fashioned in the shape of
flames. His belt was studded with garnets and yellow topaz, and a great square-cut ruby was set in the
hilt of the sword he wore. Otherwise his dress was plain: studded leather jerkin over quilted doublet,
worn boots, breeches of brown roughspun. The device on his sun-yellow banner showed a red heart
surrounded by a blaze of orange fire. The crowned stag was there, yes . . . shrunken and enclosed within
the heart. Even more curious was his standard bearer-a woman, garbed all in reds, face shadowed within
the deep hood of her scarlet cloak. A red priestess, Catelyn thought, wondering. The sect was numerous
and powerful in the Free Cities and the distant east, but there were few in the Seven Kingdoms.
"Lady Stark," Stannis Baratheon said with chill courtesy as he reined up. He inclined his head, balder
than she remembered.
"Lord Stannis," she returned.
Beneath the tight-trimmed beard his heavy jaw clenched hard, yet he did not hector her about titles. For
that she was duly grateful. "I had not thought to find you at Storm's End."
"I had not thought to be here."
His deepset eyes regarded her uncomfortably. This was not a man made for easy courtesies. "I am sorry
for your lord's death," he said, "though Eddard Stark was no friend to me."
"He was never your enemy, my lord. When the Lords Tyrell and Redwyne held you prisoned in that
castle, starving, it was Eddard Stark who broke the siege."
"At my brother's command, not for love of me," Stannis answered. "Lord Eddard did his duty, I will not
deny it. Did I ever do less? I should have been Robert's Hand."
"That was your brother's will. Ned never wanted it."
"Yet he took it. That which should have been mine. Still, I give you my word, you shall have justice for
his murder."
How they loved to promise heads, these men who would be king. "Your brother promised me the same.
But if truth be told, I would sooner have my daughters back, and leave justice to the gods. Cersei still
holds my Sansa, and of Arya there has been no word since the day of Robert's death."
"If your children are found when I take the city, they shall be sent to you." Alive or dead, his tone
implied.
"And when shall that be, Lord Stannis? King's Landing is close to your Dragonstone, but I find you here
instead."
"You are frank, Lady Stark. Very well, I'll answer you frankly. To take the city, I need the power of
these southron lords I see across the field. My brother has them. I must needs take them from him."
"Men give their allegiance where they will, my lord. These lords swore fealty to Robert and House


Baratheon. If you and your brother were to put aside your quarrel-"
"I have no quarrel with Renly, should he prove dutiful. I am his elder, and his king. I want only what is
mine by rights. Renly owes me loyalty and obedience. I mean to have it. From him, and from these other
lords." Stannis studied her face. "And what cause brings you to this field, my lady? Has House Stark cast
its lot with my brother, is that the way of it?"
This one will never bend, she thought, yet she must try nonetheless. Too much was at stake. "My son
reigns as King in the North, by the will of our lords and people. He bends the knee to no man, but holds
out the hand of friendship to all."
"Kings have no friends," Stannis said bluntly, "only subjects and enemies."
"And brothers," a cheerful voice called out behind her. Catelyn glanced over her shoulder as Lord
Renly's palfrey picked her way through the stumps. The younger Baratheon was splendid in his green
velvet doublet and satin cloak trimmed in vair. The crown of golden roses girded his temples, jade stag's
head rising over his forehead, long black hair spilling out beneath. jagged chunks of black diamond
studded his swordbelt, and a chain of gold and emeralds looped around his neck.
Renly had chosen a woman to carry his banner as well, though Brienne hid face and form behind plate
armor that gave no hint of her sex. Atop her twelve-foot lance, the crowned stag pranced black-on-gold
as the wind off the sea rippled the cloth.
His brother's greeting was curt. "Lord Renly."
"King Renly. Can that truly be you, Stannis?"
Stannis frowned. "Who else should it be?"
Renly gave an easy shrug. "When I saw that standard, I could not be certain. Whose banner do you
bear?"
"Mine own."
The red-clad priestess spoke up. "The king has taken for his sigil the fiery heart of the Lord of Light."
Renly seemed amused by that. "All for the good. If we both use the same banner, the battle will be
terribly confused."
Catelyn said, "Let us hope there will be no battle. We three share a common foe who would destroy us
all."
Stannis studied her, unsmiling. "The Iron Throne is mine by rights. All those who deny that are my foes."
"The whole of the realm denies it, brother," said Renly. "Old men deny it with their death rattle, and
unborn children deny it in their mothers'wombs. They deny it in Dorne and they deny it on the Wall. No
one wants you for their king. Sorry."
Stannis clenched his jaw, his face taut. "I swore I would never treat with you while you wore your
traitor's crown. Would that I had kept to that vow."


"This is folly," Catelyn said sharply. "Lord Tywin sits at Harrenhal with twenty thousand swords. The
remnants of the Kingslayer's army have regrouped at the Golden Tooth, another Lannister host gathers
beneath the shadow of Casterly Rock, and Cersei and her son hold King's Landing and your precious
Iron Throne. You each name yourself king, yet the kingdom bleeds, and no one lifts a sword to defend it
but my son."
Renly shrugged. "Your son has won a few battles. I shall win the war. The Lannisters can wait my
pleasure."
"If you have proposals to make, make them," Stannis said brusquely, "or I will be gone."
"Very well," said Renly. "I propose that you dismount, bend your knee, and swear me your allegiance."
Stannis choked back rage. "That you shall never have."
"You served Robert, why not me?"
"Robert was my elder brother. You are the younger."
"Younger, bolder, and far more comely . . ."
". . . and a thief and a usurper besides."
Renly shrugged. "The Targaryens called Robert usurper. He seemed to be able to bear the shame. So
shall I.-
This will not do. "Listen to yourselves! If you were sons of mine, I would bang your heads together and
lock you in a bedchamber until you remembered that you were brothers."
Stannis frowned at her. "You presume too much, Lady Stark. I am the rightful king, and your son no less
a traitor than my brother here. His day will come as well."
The naked threat fanned her fury. "You are very free to name others
traitor and usurper, my lord, yet how are you any different? You say you alone are the rightful king, yet it
seems to me that Robert had two sons. By all the laws of the Seven Kingdoms, Prince Joffrey is his
rightful heir, and Tornmen after him . . . and we are all traitors, however good our reasons."
Renly laughed. "You must forgive Lady Catelyn, Stannis. She's come all the way down from Riverrun, a
long way ahorse. I fear she never saw your little letter."
"Joffrey is not my brother's seed," Stannis said bluntly. "Nor is Tommen. They are bastards. The girl as
well. All three of them abominations born of incest."
Would even Cersei be so mad? Catelyn was speechless.
"Isn't that a sweet story, my lady?" Renly asked. "I was camped at Horn Hill when Lord Tarly received
his letter, and I must say, it took my breath away." He smiled at his brother. "I had never suspected you
were so clever, Stannis. Were it only true, you would indeed be Robert's heir."
"Were it true? Do you name me a liar?"


"Can you prove any word of this fable?"
Stannis ground his teeth.
Robert could never have known, Catelyn thought, or Cersei would have lost her head in an instant.
"Lord Stannis," she asked, "if you knew the queen to be guilty of such monstrous crimes, why did you
keep silent? "
"I did not keep silent," Stannis declared. "I brought my suspicions to Jon Arryn."
"Rather than your own brother?"
"My brother's regard for me was never more than dutiful," said Stannis. "From me, such accusations
would have seemed peevish and selfserving, a means of placing myself first in the line of succession. I
believed Robert would be more disposed to listen if the charges came from Lord Arryn, whom he
loved."
"Ah," said Renly. "So we have the word of a dead man."
"Do you think he died by happenstance, you purblind fool? Cersei had him poisoned, for fear he would
reveal her. Lord Jon had been gathering certain proofs-"
"-which doubtless died with him. How inconvenient."
Catelyn was remembering, fitting pieces together. "My sister Lysa accused the queen of killing her
husband in a letter she sent me at Winterfell," she admitted. "Later, in the Eyrie, she laid the murder at the
feet of the queen's brother Tyrion."
Stannis snorted. "If you step in a nest of snakes, does it matter which one bites you first?"
"All this of snakes and incest is droll, but it changes nothing. You may
well have the better claim, Stannis, but I still have the larger army." Renly's hand slid inside his cloak.
Stannis saw, and reached at once for the hilt of his sword, but before he could draw steel his brother
produced . . . a peach. "Would you like one, brother?" Renly asked, smiling. "From Highgarden. You've
never tasted anything so sweet, I promise you." He took a bite. juice ran from the corner of his mouth.
"I did not come here to eat fruit." Stannis was fuming.
"My lords!" Catelyn said. "We ought to be hammering out the terms of an alliance, not trading taunts."
"A man should never refuse to taste a peach," Renly said as he tossed the stone away. "He may never
get the chance again. Life is short, Stannis. Remember what the Starks say. Winter is coming." He wiped
his mouth with the back of his hand.
"I did not come here to be threatened, either."
"Nor were you," Renly snapped back. "When I make threats, you'll know it. If truth be told, I've never
liked you, Stannis, but you are my own blood, and I have no wish to slay you. So if it is Storm's End you
want, take it . . . as a brother's gift. As Robert once gave it to me, I give it to YOU."


"It is not yours to give. It is mine by rights."
Sighing, Renly half turned in the saddle. "What am I to do with this brother of mine, Brienne? He refuses
my peach, he refuses my castle, he even shunned my wedding . . ."
"We both know your wedding was a mummer's farce. A year ago you were scheming to make the girl
one of Robert's whores."
"A year ago I was scheming to make the girl Robert's queen," Renly said, "but what does it matter? The
boar got Robert and I got Margaery. You'll be pleased to know she came to me a maid."
"In your bed she's like to die that way."
"0h, I expect I'll get a son on her within the year. Pray, how many sons do you have, Stannis? Oh,
yes-none." Renly smiled innocently. "As to your daughter, I understand. If my wife looked like yours, Id
send my fool to service her as well."
"Enough!" Stannis roared. "I will not be mocked to my face, do you hear me? I will not!" He yanked his
longsword from its scabbard. The steel gleamed strangely bright in the wan sunlight, now red, now
yellow, now blazing white. The air around it seemed to shimmer, as if from heat.
Catelyn's horse whinnied and backed away a step, but Brienne moved between the brothers, her own
blade in hand. "Put up your steel!" she shouted at Stannis.
Cersei Lannister is laughing herself breathless, Catelyn thought wearily.
Stannis pointed his shining sword at his brother. "I am not without
mercy," thundered he who was notoriously without mercy. "Nor do I wish to sully Lightbringer with a
brother's blood. For the sake of the mother who bore us both, I will give you this night to rethink your
folly, Renly. Strike your banners and come to me before dawn, and I will grant you Storm's End and
your old seat on the council and even name you my heir until a son is born to me. Otherwise, I shall
destroy you."
Renly laughed. "Stannis, that's a very pretty sword, I'll grant you, but I think the glow off it has ruined
your eyes. Look across the fields, brother. Can you see all those banners?"
"Do you think a few bolts of cloth will make you king?"
"Tyrell swords will make me king. Rowan and Tarly and Caron will make me king, with axe and mace
and warhammer. Tarth arrows and Penrose lances, Fossoway, Cuy, Mullendore, Estermont, Selmy,
Hightower, Oakheart, Crane, Caswell, Blackbar, Morrigen, Beesbury, Shermer, Dunn, Footly . . . even
House Florent, your own wife's brothers and uncles, they will make me king. All the chivalry of the south
rides with me, and that is the least part of my power. My foot is coming behind, a hundred thousand
swords and spears and pikes. And you will destroy me? With what, pray? That paltry rabble I see there
huddled under the castle walls? I'll call them five thousand and be generous, codfish lords and onion
knights and sellswords. Half of them are like to come over to me before the battle starts. You have fewer
than four hundred horse, my scouts tell me-freeriders in boiled leather who will not stand an instant
against armored lances. I do not care how seasoned a warrior you think you are, Stannis, that host of
yours won't survive the first charge of my vanguard."


"We shall see, brother." Some of the light seemed to go out of the world when Stannis slid his sword
back into its scabbard. "Come the dawn, we shall see."
"I hope your new god's a merciful one, brother."
Stannis snorted and galloped away, disdainful. The red priestess lingered a moment behind. "Look to
your own sins, Lord Renly," she said as she wheeled her horse around.
Catelyn and Lord Renly returned together to the camp where his thousands and her few waited their
return. "That was amusing, if not terribly profitable," he commented. "I wonder where I can get a sword
like that? Well, doubtless Loras will make me a gift of it after the battle. it grieves me that it must come to
this."
"You have a cheerful way of grieving," said Catelyn, whose distress was not feigned.
"Do I?" Renly shrugged. "So be it. Stannis was never the most cherished of brothers, I confess. Do you
suppose this tale of his is true? If Joffrey is the Kingslayer's get-"
"-your brother is the lawful heir."
"While he lives," Renly admitted. "Though it's a fool's law, wouldn't you agree? Why the oldest son, and
not the best-fitted? The crown will suit me, as it never suited Robert and would not suit Stannis. I have it
in me to be a great king, strong yet generous, clever, just, diligent, loyal to my friends and terrible to my
enemies, yet capable of forgiveness, patient-"
"-humble?" Catelyn supplied.
Renly laughed. "You must allow a king some flaws, my lady."
Catelyn felt very tired. It had all been for nothing. The Baratheon brothers would drown each other in
blood while her son faced the Lannisters alone, and nothing she could say or do would stop it. It is past
time I went back to Riverrun to close my father's eyes, she thought. That much at least I can do. I may be
a poor envoy, but I am a good moumer, gods save me.
Their camp was well sited atop a low stony ridge that ran from north to south. It was far more orderly
than the sprawling encampment on the Mander, though only a quarter as large. When he'd learned of his
brother's assault on Storm's End, Renly had split his forces, much as Robb had done at the Twins. His
great mass of foot he had left behind at Bitterbridge with his young queen, his wagons, carts, draft
animals, and all his cumbersome siege machinery, while Renly himself led his knights and freeriders in a
swift dash east.
How like his brother Robert he was, even in that . . . only Robert had always had Eddard Stark to
temper his boldness with caution. Ned would surely have prevailed upon Robert to bring up his whole
force, to encircle Stannis and besiege the besiegers. That choice Renly had denied himself in his headlong
rush to come to grips with his brother. He had outdistanced his supply lines, left food and forage days
behind with all his wagons and mules and oxen. He must come to battle soon, or starve.
Catelyn sent Hal Mollen to tend to their horses while she accompanied Renly back to the royal pavilion
at the heart of the encampment. Inside the walls of green silk, his captains and lords bannermen were
waiting to hear word of the parley. "My brother has not changed," their young king told them as Brienne


unfastened his cloak and lifted the goldand-jade crown from his brow. "Castles and courtesies will not
appease him, he must have blood. Well, I am of a mind to grant his wish."
"Your Grace, I see no need for battle here," Lord Mathis Rowan put in. "The castle is strongly
garrisoned and well provisioned, Ser Cortnay Penrose is a seasoned commander, and the trebuchet has
not been built that could breach the walls of Storm's End. Let Lord Stannis have his siege. He will find no
joy in it, and whilst he sits cold and hungry and profitless, we will take King's Landing."
"And have men say I feared to face Stannis?"
"Only fools will say that," Lord Mathis argued.
Renly looked to the others. "What say you all?"
"I say that Stannis is a danger to you," Lord Randyll Tarly declared. "Leave him unblooded and he will
only grow stronger, while your own power is diminished by battle. The Lannisters will not be beaten in a
day. By the time you are done with them, Lord Stannis may be as strong as you . . . or stronger."
Others chorused their agreement. The king looked pleased. "We shall fight, then."
I have failed Robb as I failed Ned, Catelyn thought. "My lord," she announced. "If you are set on battle,
my purpose here is done. I ask your leave to return to Riverrun."
"You do not have it." Renly seated himself on a camp chair.
She stiffened. "I had hoped to help you make a peace, my lord. I will not help you make a war."
Renly gave a shrug. "I daresay we'll prevail without your five-andtwenty, my lady. I do not mean for you
to take part in the battle, only to watch it."
"I was at the Whispering Wood, my lord. I have seen enough butchery. I came here an envoy-"
"And an envoy you shall leave," Renly said, "but wiser than you came. You shall see what befalls rebels
with your own eyes, so your son can hear it from your own lips. We'll keep you safe, never fear." He
turned away to make his dispositions. "Lord Mathis, you shall lead the center of my main battle. Bryce,
you'll have the left. The right is mine. Lord Estermont, you shall command the reserve."
"I shall not fail you, Your Grace," Lord Estermont replied.
Lord Mathis Rowan spoke up. "Who shall have the van?"
"Your Grace," said Ser Jon Fossoway, "I beg the honor."
"Beg all you like," said Ser Guyard the Green, "by rights it should be one of the seven who strikes the
first blow."
"It takes more than a pretty cloak to charge a shield wall," Randyll Tarly announced. "I was leading
Mace Tyrell's van when you were still sucking on your mother's teat, Guyard."
A clamor filled the pavilion, as other men loudly set forth their claims. The knights of summer, Catelyn
thought. Renly raised a hand. "Enough, my lords. If I had a dozen vans, all of you should have one, but


the greatest glory by rights belongs to the greatest knight. Ser Loras shall strike the first blow."
"With a glad heart, Your Grace." The Knight of Flowers knelt before the king. "Grant me your blessing,
and a knight to ride beside me with your banner. Let the stag and rose go to battle side by side."
Renly glanced about him. "Brienne."
"Your Grace?" She was still armored in her blue steel, though she had taken off her helm. The crowded
tent was hot, and sweat plastered limp yellow hair to her broad, homely face. "My place is at your side. I
am your sworn shield . . ."
"One of seven," the king reminded her. "Never fear, four of your fellows will be with me in the fight."
Brienne dropped to her knees. "If I must part from Your Grace, grant me the honor of arming you for
battle."
Catelyn heard someone snigger behind her. She loves him, poor thing, she thought sadly. She'd play his
squire just to touch him, and never care how great a fool they think her.
"Granted," Renly said. "Now leave me, all of you. Even kings must rest before a battle."
"My lord," Catelyn said, "there was a small sept in the last village we passed. If you will not permit me to
depart for Riverrun, grant me leave to go there and pray."
"As you will. Ser Robar, give Lady Stark safe escort to this sept . . . but see that she returns to us by
dawn."
"You might do well to pray yourself," Catelyn added.
"For victory?"
"For wisdom."
Renly laughed. "Loras, stay and help me pray. It's been so long I've quite forgotten how. As to the rest
of you, I want every man in place by first light, armed, armored, and horsed. We shall give Stannis a
dawn he will not soon forget."
Dusk was falling when Catelyn left the pavilion. Ser Robar Royce fell in beside her. She knew him
slightly-one of Bronze Yohn's sons, comely in a rough-hewn way, a tourney warrior of some renown.
Renly had gifted him with a rainbow cloak and a suit of blood red armor, and named him one of his
seven. "You are a long way from the Vale, ser," she told him.
"And you far from Winterfell, my lady."
"I know what brought me here, but why have you come? This is not your battle, no more than it is mine."
"I made it my battle when I made Renly my king."
"The Royces are bannermen to House Arryn."
"My lord father owes Lady Lysa fealty, as does his heir. A second son must find glory where he can."


Ser Robar shrugged. "A man grows weary of tourneys."
He could not be older than one-and-twenty, Catelyn thought, of an age with his king . . . but her king,
her Robb, had more wisdom at fifteen than this youth had ever learned. Or so she prayed.
In Catelyn's small corner of the camp, Shadd was slicing carrots into a kettle, Hal Mollen was dicing
with three of his Winterfell men, and Lucas Blackwood sat sharpening his dagger. "Lady Stark," Lucas
said when he saw her, "Mollen says it is to be battle at dawn."
"Hal has the truth of it," she answered. And a loose tongue as well, it would seem.
"Do we fight or flee?"
"We pray, Lucas," she answered him. "We pray."
CHAPTER 32
SANSA
The longer you keep him waiting, the worse it will go for you," Sandor Clegane warned her.
Sansa tried to hurry, but her fingers fumbled at buttons and knots. The Hound was always
rough-tongued, but something in the way he had looked at her filled her with dread. Had Joffrey found
out about her meetings with Ser Dontos? Please no, she thought as she brushed out her hair. Ser Dontos
was her only hope. I have to look pretty, foff likes me to look pretty, he's always liked me in this gown,
this color. She smoothed the cloth down. The fabric was tight across her chest.
When she emerged, Sansa walked on the Hound's left, away from the burned side of his face. "Tell me
what I've done."
"Not you. Your kingly brother."
"Robb's a traitor." Sansa knew the words by rote. "I had no part in whatever he did." Gods be good,
don't let it be the Kingslayer. If Robb had harmed Jaime Larmister, it would mean her life. She thought of
Ser Ilyn, and how those terrible pale eyes staring pitilessly out of that gaunt pockmarked face.
The Hound snorted. "They trained you well, little bird." He conducted her to the lower bailey, where a
crowd had gathered around the archery butts. Men moved aside to let them through. She could hear
Lord Gyles coughing. Loitering stablehands eyed her insolently, but Ser Horas Redwyne averted his gaze
as she passed, and his brother Hobber pretended not to see her. A yellow cat was dying on the ground,
mewling
piteously, a crossbow quarrel through its ribs. Sansa stepped around it, feeling ill.
Ser Dontos approached on his broomstick horse; since he'd been too drunk to mount his destrier at the
tourney, the king had decreed that henceforth he must always go horsed. "Be brave," he whispered,
squeezing her arm.


Joffrey stood in the center of the throng, winding an ornate crossbow. Ser Boros and Ser Meryn were
with him. The sight of them was enough to tie her insides in knots.
"Your Grace." She fell to her knees.
"Kneeling won't save you now," the king said. "Stand up. You're here to answer for your brother's latest
treasons."
"Your Grace, whatever my traitor brother has done, I had no part. You know that, I beg you, please-"
"Get her up!"
The Hound pulled her to her feet, not ungently.
"Ser Lancel," Joff said, "tell her of this outrage."
Sansa had always thought Lancel Lannister comely and well spoken, but there was neither pity nor
kindness in the look he gave her. "Using some vile sorcery, your brother fell upon Ser Stafford Lannister
with an army of wargs, not three days ride from Lannisport. Thousands of good men were butchered as
they slept, without the chance to lift sword. After the slaughter, the northmen feasted on the flesh of the
slain."
Horror coiled cold hands around Sansa's throat.
"You have nothing to say?" asked Joffrey.
"Your Grace, the poor child is shocked witless," murmured Ser Dontos.
"Silence, fool." Joffrey lifted his crossbow and pointed it at her face. "You Starks are as unnatural as
those wolves of yours. I've not forgotten how your monster savaged me."
"That was Arya's wolf," she said. "Lady never hurt you, but you killed her anyway."
"No, your father did," Joff said, "but I killed your father. I wish I'd done it myself. I killed a man last night
who was bigger than your father. They came to the gate shouting my name and calling for bread like I
was some baker, but I taught them better. I shot the loudest one right through the throat."
"And he died?" With the ugly iron head of the quarrel staring her in the face, it was hard to think what
else to say.
"Of course he died, he had my quarrel in his throat. There was a woman throwing rocks, I got her as
well, but only in the arm." Frowning, he lowered the crossbow. "I'd shoot you too, but if I do Mother
says they'd kill my uncle Jaime. Instead you'll just be punished and we'll send
word to your brother about what will happen to you if he doesn't yield. Dog, hit her."
"Let me beat her!" Ser Dontos shoved forward, tin armor clattering. He was armed with a "morningstar"
whose head was a melon. My Florian. She could have kissed him, blotchy skin and broken veins and all.
He trotted his broomstick around her, shouting "Traitor, traitor" and whacking her over the head with the
melon. Sansa covered herself with her hands, staggering every time the fruit pounded her, her hair sticky


by the second blow. People were laughing. The melon flew to pieces. Laugh, Joffrey, she prayed as the
juice ran down her face and the front of her blue silk gown. Laugh and be satisfied.
Joffrey did not so much as snigger. "Boros. Meryn."
Ser Meryn Trant seized Dontos by the arm and flung him brusquely away. The red-faced fool went
sprawling, broomstick, melon, and all. Ser Boros seized Sansa.
"Leave her face," Joffrey commanded. "I like her pretty."
Boros slammed a fist into Sansa's belly, driving the air out of her. When she doubled over, the knight
grabbed her hair and drew his sword, and for one hideous instant she was certain he meant to open her
throat. As he laid the flat of the blade across her thighs, she thought her legs might break from the force
of the blow. Sansa screamed. Tears welled in her eyes. It will be over soon. She soon lost count of the
blows.
"Enough," she heard the Hound rasp.
"No it isn't," the king replied. "Boros, make her naked."
Boros shoved a meaty hand down the front of Sansa's bodice and gave a hard yank. The silk came
tearing away, baring her to the waist. Sansa covered her breasts with her hands. She could hear sniggers,
far off and cruel. "Beat her bloody," Joffrey said, "we'll see how her brother fancies-"
"What is the meaning of this?"
The Imp's voice cracked like a whip, and suddenly Sansa was free. She stumbled to her knees, arms
crossed over her chest, her breath ragged. "Is this your notion of chivalry, Ser Boros?" Tyrion Lannister
demanded angrily. His pet sellsword stood with him, and one of his wildlings, the one with the burned
eye. "What sort of knight beats helpless maids?"
"The sort who serves his king, Imp." Ser Boros raised his sword, and Ser Meryn stepped up beside him,
his blade scraping clear of its scabbard.
"Careful with those," warned the dwarf's sellsword. "You don't want to get blood all over those pretty
white cloaks."
"Someone give the girl something to cover herself with," the Imp said.
Sandor Clegane unfastened his cloak and tossed it at her. Sansa clutched it against her chest, fists
bunched hard in the white wool. The coarse weave was scratchy against her skin, but no velvet had ever
felt so fine.
"This girl's to be your queen," the Imp told Joffrey. "Have you no regard for her honor?"
"I'm punishing her."
"For what crime? She did not fight her brother's battle."
"She has the blood of a wolf."


"And you have the wits of a goose."
"You can't talk to me that way. The king can do as he likes."
"Aerys Targaryen did as he liked. Has your mother ever told you what happened to him?"
Ser Boros Blount harrumphed. "No man threatens His Grace in the presence of the Kingsguard."
Tyrion Lannister raised an eyebrow. "I am not threatening the king, ser, I am educating my nephew.
Bronn, Timett, the next time Ser Boros opens his mouth, kill him." The dwarf smiled. "Now that was a
threat, ser. See the difference?"
Ser Boros turned a dark shade of red. "The queen will hear of this!"
"No doubt she will. And why wait? Joffrey, shall we send for your mother? "
The king flushed.
"Nothing to say, Your Grace?" his uncle went on. "Good. Learn to use your ears more and your mouth
less, or your reign will be shorter than I am. Wanton brutality is no way to win your people's love . . . or
your queen's."
"Fear is better than love, Mother says." Joffrey pointed at Sansa. "She fears me."
The Imp sighed. "Yes, I see. A pity Stannis and Renly aren't twelveyear-old girls as well. Bronn, Timett,
bring her."
Sansa moved as if in a dream. She thought the Imp's men would take her back to her bedchamber in
Maegor's Holdfast, but instead they conducted her to the Tower of the Hand. She had not set foot inside
that place since the day her father fell from grace, and it made her feel faint to climb those steps again.
Some serving girls took charge of her, mouthing meaningless comforts to stop her shaking. One stripped
off the ruins of her gown and smallclothes, and another bathed her and washed the sticky juice from her
face and her hair. As they scrubbed her down with soap and sluiced warm water over her head, all she
could see were the faces from the bailey. Knights are sworn to defend the weak, protect women, and
fight for the right, but none of them did a thing. Only Ser Dontos had tried to
help, and he was no longer a knight, no more than the Imp was, nor the Hound . . . the Hound hated
knights . . . I hate them too, Sansa thought. They are no true knights, not one of them.
After she was clean, plump ginger-headed Maester Frenken came to see her. He bid her lie facedown
on the mattress while he spread a salve across the angry red welts that covered the backs of her legs.
Afterward he mixed her a draught of dreamwine, with some honey so it might go down easier. "Sleep a
bit, child. When you wake, all this will seem a bad dream."
No it won't, you stupid man, Sansa thought, but she drank the drearnwine anyway, and slept.
It was dark when she woke again, not quite knowing where she was, the room both strange and
strangely familiar. As she rose, a stab of pain went through her legs and brought it all back. Tears filled
her eyes. Someone had laid out a robe for her beside the bed. Sansa slipped it on and opened the door.
Outside stood a hard-faced woman with leathery brown skin, three necklaces looped about her scrawny


neck. One was gold and one was silver and one was made of human ears. "Where does she think she's
going?" the woman asked, leaning on a tall spear.
"The godswood.- She had to find Ser Dontos, beg him to take her home now before it was too late.
"The halfman said you're not to leave," the woman said. "Pray here, the gods will hear."
Meekly, Sansa dropped her eyes and retreated back inside. She realized suddenly why this place
seemed so familiar. They've put me in Arya's old bedchamber, from when Father was the Hand of the
King. All her things are gone and the furnishings have been moved around, but it's the same . . .
A short time later, a serving girl brought a platter of cheese and bread and olives, with a flagon of cold
water. "Take it away," Sansa commanded, but the girl left the food on a table. She was thirsty, she
realized. Every step sent knives through her thighs, but she made herself cross the room. She drank two
cups of water, and was nibbling on an olive when the knock came.
Anxiously, she turned toward the door, smoothed down the folds of her robe. "Yes?"
The door opened, and Tyrion Lannister stepped inside. "My lady. I trust I am not disturbing you?"
"Am I your prisoner?"
"My guest." He was wearing his chain of office, a necklace of linked golden hands. "I thought we might
talk."
"As my lord commands." Sansa found it hard not to stare; his face was so ugly it held a queer fascination
for her.
"The food and garments are to your satisfaction?" he asked. "If there is anything else you need, you have
only to ask."
"You are most kind. And this morning . . . it was very good of you to help me."
"You have a right to know why Joffrey was so wroth. Six nights gone, your brother fell upon my uncle
Stafford, encamped with his host at a village called Oxcross not three days ride from Casterly Rock.
Your northerners won a crushing victory. We received word only this morning."
Robb will kill you all, she thought, exulting. "It's . . . terrible, my lord. My brother is a vile traitor."
The dwarf smiled wanly. "Well, he's no fawn, he's made that clear enough."
"Ser Lancel said Robb led an army of wargs
The Imp gave a disdainful bark of laughter. "Ser Lancel's a wineskin warrior who wouldn't know a warg
from a wart. Your brother had his direwolf with him, but I suspect that's as far as it went. The northmen
crept into my uncle's camp and cut his horse lines, and Lord Stark sent his wolf among them. Even
war-trained destriers went mad. Knights were trampled to death in their pavilions, and the rabble woke
in terror and fled, casting aside their weapons to run the faster. Ser Stafford was slain as he chased after
a horse. Lord Rickard Karstark drove a lance through his chest. Ser Rubert Brax is also dead, along
with Ser Lymond Vikary, Lord Crakehall, and Lord jast. Half a hundred more have been taken captive,
including jast's sons and my nephew Martyn Lannister. Those who survived are spreading wild tales and


swearing that the old gods of the north march with your brother."
"Then . . . there was no sorcery?"
Lannister snorted. "Sorcery is the sauce fools spoon over failure to hide the flavor of their own
incompetence. My mutton-headed uncle had not even troubled to post sentries, it would seem. His host
was raw-apprentice boys, miners, fieldhands, fisherfolk, the sweepings of Lannisport. The only mystery is
how your brother reached him. Our forces still hold the stronghold at the Golden Tooth, and they swear
he did not pass." The dwarf gave an irritated shrug. "Well, Robb Stark is my father's bane. Joffrey is
mine. Tell me, what do you feel for my kingly nephew?"
"I love him with all my heart," Sansa said at once.
"Truly?" He did not sound convinced. "Even now?"
"My love for His Grace is greater than it has ever been."
The Imp laughed aloud. "Well, someone has taught you to lie well. You may be grateful for that one day,
child. You are a child still, are you not? Or have you flowered?"
Sansa blushed. It was a rude question, but the shame of being stripped before half the castle made it
seem like nothing. "No, my lord."
"That's all to the good. If it gives you any solace, I do not intend that you ever wed Joffrey. No marriage
will reconcile Stark and Lannister after all that has happened, I fear. More's the pity. The match was one
of King Robert's better notions, if Joffrey hadn't mucked it up."
She knew she ought to say something, but the words caught in her throat.
"You grow very quiet," Tyrion Lannister observed. "Is this what you want? An end to your betrothal?"
"I . . ." Sansa did not know what to say. Is it a trick? Will he punish me if I tell the truth? She stared at
the dwarf's brutal bulging brow, the hard black eye and the shrewd green one, the crooked teeth and
wiry beard. "I only want to be loyal."
"Loyal," the dwarf mused, "and far from any Lannisters. I can scarce blame you for that. When I was
your age, I wanted the same thing." He smiled. "They tell me you visit the godswood every day. What do
you pray for, Sansa?"
I pray for Robb's victory and foffrey's death . . . and for home. For Winterfell. "I pray for an end to the
fighting."
"We'll have that soon enough. There will be another battle, between your brother Robb and my lord
father, and that will settle the issue."
Robb will beat him, Sansa thought. He beat your uncle and your brother faime, he'll beat your father too.
It was as if her face were an open book, so easily did the dwarf read her hopes. "Do not take Oxcross
too much to heart, my lady," he told her, not unkindly. "A battle is not a war, and my lord father is
assuredly not my uncle Stafford. The next time you visit the godswood, pray that your brother has the
wisdom to bend the knee. Once the north returns to the king's peace, I mean to send you home." He


hopped down off the window seat and said, "You may sleep here tonight. I'll give you some of my own
men as a guard, some Stone Crows perhaps-"
"No," Sansa blurted out, aghast. If she was locked in the Tower of the Hand, guarded by the dwarf's
men, how would Ser Dontos ever spirit her away to freedom?
"Would you prefer Black Ears? I'll give you Chella if a woman would make you more at ease."
"Please, no, my lord, the wildlings frighten me."
He grinned. "Me as well. But more to the point, they frighten Joffrey and that nest of sly vipers and
lickspittle dogs he calls a Kingsguard. With Chella or Timett by your side, no one would dare offer you
harm."
"I would sooner return to my own bed." A lie came to her suddenly, but it seemed so right that she
blurted it out at once. "This tower was
where my father's men were slain. Their ghosts would give me terrible dreams, and I would see their
blood wherever I looked."
Tyrion Lannister studied her face. "I am no stranger to nightmares, Sansa. Perhaps you are wiser than I
knew. Permit me at least to escort you safely back to your own chambers."
CHAPTER 33
CATELYN
It was full dark before they found the village. Catelyn found herself wondering if the place had a name. if
so, its people had taken that knowledge with them when they fled, along with all they owned, down to
the candles in the sept. Ser Wendel lit a torch and led her through the low door.
Within, the seven walls were cracked and crooked. God is one, Septon Osmynd had taught her when
she was a girl, with seven aspects, as the sept is a single building, with seven walls. The wealthy septs of
the cities had statues of the Seven and an altar to each. In Winterfell, Septon Chayle hung carved masks
from each wall. Here Catelyn found only rough charcoal drawings. Ser Wendel set the torch in a sconce
near the door, and left to wait outside with Robar Royce.
Catelyn studied the faces. The Father was bearded, as ever. The Mother smiled, loving and protective.
The Warrior had his sword sketched in beneath his face, the Smith his hammer. The Maid was beautiful,
the Crone wizened and wise.
And the seventh face . . . the Stranger was neither male nor female, yet both, ever the outcast, the
wanderer from far places, less and more than human, unknown and unknowable. Here the face was a
black oval, a shadow with stars for eyes. It made Catelyn uneasy. She would get scant comfort there.
She knelt before the Mother. "My lady, look down on this battle with a mother's eyes. They are all sons,
every one. Spare them if you can, and


spare my own sons as well. Watch over Robb and Bran and Rickon. Would that I were with them."
A crack ran down through the Mother's left eye. it made her look as if she were crying. Catelyn could
hear Ser Wendel's booming voice, and now and again Ser Robar's quiet answers, as they talked of the
coming battle. Otherwise the night was still. Not even a cricket could be heard, and the gods kept their
silence. Did your old gods ever answer you, Ned? she wondered. When you knelt before your heart
tree, did they hear you?
Flickering torchlight danced across the walls, making the faces seem half -alive, twisting them, changing
them. The statues in the great septs of the cities wore the faces the stonemasons had given them, but
these charcoal scratchings were so crude they might be anyone. The Father's face made her think of her
own father, dying in his bed at Riverrun. The Warrior was Renly and Stannis, Robb and Robert, Jaime
Lannister and Jon Snow. She even glimpsed Arya in those lines, just for an instant. Then a gust of wind
through the door made the torch sputter, and the semblance was gone, washed away in orange glare.
The smoke was making her eyes burn. She rubbed at them with the heels of her scarred hands. When
she looked up at the Mother again, it was her own mother she saw. Lady Minisa Tully had died in
childbed, trying to give Lord Hoster a second son. The baby had perished with her, and afterward some
of the life had gone out of Father. She was always so calm, Catelyn thought, remembering her mother's
soft hands, her warm smile. lf she had lived, how different our lives might have been. She wondered what
Lady Minisa would make of her eldest daughter, kneeling here before her. I have come so many
thousands of leagues, and for what? Who have I served? I have lost my daughters, Robb does not want
me, and Bran and Rickon must surely think me a cold and unnatural mother. I was not even with Ned
when he died . . .
Her head swam, and the sept seemed to move around her. The shadows swayed and shifted, furtive
animals racing across the cracked white walls. Catelyn had not eaten today. Perhaps that had been
unwise. She told herself that there had been no time, but the truth was that food had lost its savor in a
world without Ned. When they took his head off, they killed me too.
Behind her the torch spit, and suddenly it seemed to her that it was her sister's face on the wall, though
the eyes were harder than she recalled, not Lysa's eyes but Cersei's. Cersei is a mother too. No matter
who fathered those children, she felt them kick inside her, brought them forth with her pain and blood,
nursed them at her breast. lf they are truly faime's . . .
"Does Cersei pray to you too, my lady?" Catelyn asked the Mother. She could see the proud, cold,
lovely features of the Lannister queen
etched upon the wall. The crack was still there; even Cersei could weep for her children. "Each of the
Seven embodies all of the Seven," Septon Osmynd had told her once. There was as much beauty in the
Crone as in the Maiden, and the Mother could be fiercer than the Warrior when her children were in
danger. Yes . . .
She had seen enough of Robert Baratheon at Winterfell to know that the king did not regard Joffrey with
any great warmth. If the boy was truly Jaime's seed, Robert would have put him to death along with his
mother, and few would have condemned him. Bastards were common enough, but incest was a
monstrous sin to both old gods and new, and the children of such wickedness were named abominations
in sept and godswood alike. The dragon kings had wed brother to sister, but they were the blood of old
Valyria where such practices had been common, and like their dragons the Targaryens answered to
neither gods nor men.


Ned must have known, and Lord Arryn before him. Small wonder that the queen had killed them both.
Would I do any less for my own? Catelyn clenched her hands, feeling the tightness in her scarred fingers
where the assassin's steel had cut to the bone as she fought to save her son. "Bran knows too," she
whispered, lowering her head. Gods be good, he must have seen something, heard something, that was
why they tried to kill him in his bed.
Lost and weary, Catelyn Stark gave herself over to her gods. She knelt before the Smith, who fixed
things that were broken, and asked that he give her sweet Bran his protection. She went to the Maid and
beseeched her to lend her courage to Arya and Sansa, to guard them in their innocence. To the Father,
she prayed for justice, the strength to seek it and the wisdom to know it, and she asked the Warrior to
keep Robb strong and shield him in his battles. Lastly she turned to the Crone, whose statues often
showed her with a lamp in one hand. "Guide me, wise lady," she prayed. "Show me the path I must walk,
and do not let me stumble in the dark places that lie ahead."
Finally there were footsteps behind her, and a noise at the door. "My lady," Ser Robar said gently,
"pardon, but our time is at an end. We must be back before the dawn breaks."
Catelyn rose stiffly. Her knees ached, and she would have given much for a featherbed and a pillow just
then. "Thank you, ser. I am ready."
They rode in silence through sparse woodland where the trees leaned drunkenly away from the sea. The
nervous whinny of horses and the clank of steel guided them back to Renly's camp. The long ranks of
man and horse were armored in darkness, as black as if the Smith had hammered night itself into steel.
There were banners to her right, banners to her left, and rank on rank of banners before her, but in the
predawn
gloom, neither colors nor sigils could be discerned. A grey army, Catelyn thought. Grey men on grey
horses beneath grey banners. As they sat their horses waiting, Renly's shadow knights pointed their
lances upward, so she rode through a forest of tall naked trees, bereft of leaves and life. Where Storm's
End stood was only a deeper darkness, a wall of black through which no stars could shine, but she could
see torches moving across the fields where Lord Stannis had made his camp.
The candles within Renly's pavilion made the shimmering silken walls seem to glow, transforming the
great tent into a magical castle alive with emerald light. Two of the Rainbow Guard stood sentry at the
door to the royal pavilion. The green light shone strangely against the purple plums of Ser Parmen's
surcoat, and gave a sickly hue to the sunflowers that covered every inch of Ser Emmon's enameled
yellow plate. Long silken plumes flew from their helms, and rainbow cloaks draped their shoulders.
Within, Catelyn found Brienne armoring the king for battle while the Lords Tarly and Rowan spoke of
dispositions and tactics. it was pleasantly warm inside, the heat shimmering off the coals in a dozen small
iron braziers. "I must speak with you, Your Grace," she said, granting him a king's style for once, anything
to make him heed her.
"In a moment, Lady Catelyn," Renly replied. Brienne fit backplate to breastplate over his quilted tunic.
The king's armor was a deep green, the green of leaves in a summer wood, so dark it drank the
candlelight. Gold highlights gleamed from inlay and fastenings like distant fires in that wood, winking every
time he moved. "Pray continue, Lord Mathis."
"Your Grace," Mathis Rowan said with a sideways glance at Catelyn. "As I was saying, our battles are
well drawn up. Why wait for daybreak? Sound the advance."


"And have it said that I won by treachery, with an unchivalrous attack? Dawn was the chosen hour."
"Chosen by Stannis," Randyll Tarly pointed out. "He'd have us charge into the teeth of the rising sun.
We'll be half-blind."
"Only until first shock," Renly said confidently. "Ser Loras will break them, and after that it will be
chaos." Brienne tightened green leather straps and buckled golden buckles. "When my brother falls, see
that no insult is done to his corpse. He is my own blood, I will not have his head paraded about on a
spear."
"And if he yields?" Lord Tarly asked.
"Yields?" Lord Rowan laughed. "When Mace Tyrell laid siege to Storm's End, Stannis ate rats rather
than open his gates."
"Well I remember." Renly lifted his chin to allow Brienne to fasten his gorget in place. "Near the end, Ser
Gawen Wylde and three of his knights
tried to steal out a postern gate to surrender. Stannis caught them and ordered them flung from the walls
with catapults. I can still see Gawen's face as they strapped him down. He had been our
master-at-arms."
Lord Rowan appeared puzzled. "No men were hurled from the walls. I would surely remember that."
"Maester Cressen told Stannis that we might be forced to eat our dead, and there was no gain in flinging
away good meat." Renly pushed back his hair. Brienne bound it with a velvet tie and pulled a padded cap
down over his ears, to cushion the weight of his helm. "Thanks to the Onion Knight we were never
reduced to dining on corpses, but it was a close thing. Too close for Ser Gawen, who died in his cell."
"Your Grace." Catelyn had waited patiently, but time grew short. "You promised me a word."
Renly nodded. "See to your battles, my lords . . . oh, and if Barristan Selmy is at my brother's side, I
want him spared."
"There's been no word of Ser Barristan since Joffrey cast him out," Lord Rowan objected.
"I know that old man. He needs a king to guard, or who is he? Yet he never came to me, and Lady
Catelyn says he is not with Robb Stark at Riverrun. Where else but with Stannis?"
"As you say, Your Grace. No harm will come to him." The lords bowed deeply and departed.
"Say your say, Lady Stark," Renly said. Brienne swept his cloak over his broad shoulders. It was
cloth-of -gold, heavy, with the crowned stag of Baratheon picked out in flakes of jet.
"The Lannisters tried to kill my son Bran. A thousand times I have asked myself why. Your brother gave
me my answer. There was a hunt the day he fell. Robert and Ned and most of the other men rode out
after boar, but Jaime Lannister remained at Winterfell, as did the queen."
Renly was not slow to take the implication. "So you believe the boy caught them at their incest . . ."


"I beg you, my lord, grant me leave to go to your brother Stannis and tell him what I suspect."
"To what end?"
"Robb will set aside his crown if you and your brother will do the same," she said, hoping it was true.
She would make it true if she must; Robb would listen to her, even if his lords would not. "Let the three
of you call for a Great Council, such as the realm has not seen for a hundred years. We will send to
Winterfell, so Bran may tell his tale and all men may know the Lannisters for the true usurpers. Let the
assembled lords of the Seven Kingdoms choose who shall rule them."
Renly laughed. "Tell me, my lady, do direwolves vote on who should lead the pack?" Brienne brought
the king's gauntlets and greathelm,
crowned with golden antlers that would add a foot and a half to his height. "The time for talk is done.
Now we see who is stronger." Renly pulled a lobstered green-and-gold gauntlet over his left hand, while
Brienne knelt to buckle on his belt, heavy with the weight of longsword and dagger.
"I beg you in the name of the Mother," Catelyn began when a sudden gust of wind flung open the door
of the tent. She thought she glimpsed movement, but when she turned her head, it was only the king's
shadow shifting against the silken walls. She heard Renly begin a jest, his shadow moving, lifting its
sword, black on green, candles guttering, shivering, something was queer, wrong, and then she saw
Renly's sword still in its scabbard, sheathed still, but the shadowsword . . .
"Cold," said Renly in a small puzzled voice, a heartbeat before the steel of his gorget parted like
cheesecloth beneath the shadow of a blade that was not there. He had time to make a small thick gasp
before the blood came gushing out of his throat.
"Your Gr-no!" cried Brienne the Blue when she saw that evil flow, sounding as scared as any little girl.
The king stumbled into her arms, a sheet of blood creeping down the front of his armor, a dark red tide
that drowned his green and gold. More candles guttered out. Renly tried to speak, but he was choking
on his own blood. His legs collapsed, and only Brienne's strength held him up. She threw back her head
and screamed, wordless in her anguish.
The shadow Something dark and evil had happened here, she knew, something that she could not begin
to understand. Renly never cast that shadow Death came in that door and blew the life out of him as swift
as the wind snuffed out his candles.
Only a few instants passed before Robar Royce and Emmon Cuy came bursting in, though it felt like half
the night. A pair of men-at-arms crowded in behind with torches. When they saw Renly in Brienne's
arms, and her drenched with the king's blood, Ser Robar gave a cry of horror. "Wicked woman!"
screamed Ser Emmon, he of the sunflowered steel. "Away from him, you vile creature!"
"Gods be good, Brienne, why?" asked Ser Robar.
Brienne looked up from her king's body. The rainbow cloak that hung from her shoulders had turned red
where the king's blood had soaked into the cloth. "I . . . I . . ."
"You'll die for this." Ser Emmon snatched up a long-handled battleaxe from the weapons piled near the
door. "You'll pay for the king's life with your own!"
"NO!" Catelyn Stark screamed, finding her voice at last, but it was too late, the blood madness was on


them, and they rushed forward with shouts that drowned her softer words.
Brienne moved faster than Catelyn would have believed. Her own sword was not to hand, so she
snatched Renly's from its scabbard and raised it to catch Emmon's axe on the downswing. A spark
flashed bluewhite as steel met steel with a rending crash, and Brienne sprang to her feet, the body of the
dead king thrust rudely aside. Ser Emmon stumbled over it as he tried to close, and Brienne's blade
sheared through the wooden haft to send his axehead spinning. Another man thrust a flaming torch at her
back, but the rainbow cloak was too sodden with blood to burn. Brienne spun and cut, and torch and
hand went flying. Flames crept across the carpet. The maimed man began to scream. Ser Emmon
dropped the axe and fumbled for his sword. The second man-at-arms lunged, Brienne parried, and their
swords danced and clanged against each other. When Emmon Cuy came wading back in, Brienne was
forced to retreat, yet somehow she held them both at bay. On the ground, Renly's head rolled sickeningly
to one side, and a second mouth yawned wide, the blood coming from him now in slow pulses.
Ser Robar had hung back, uncertain, but now he was reaching for his hilt. "Robar, no, listen." Catelyn
seized his arm. "You do her wrong, it was not her. Help her! Hear me, it was Stannis." The name was on
her lips before she could think how it got there, but as she said it, she knew that it was true. "I swear it,
you know me, it was Stannis killed him."
The young rainbow knight stared at this madwoman with pale and frightened eyes. "Stannis? How?"
"I do not know. Sorcery, some dark magic, there was a shadow, a shadow" Her own voice sounded
wild and crazed to her, but the words poured out in a rush as the blades continued to clash behind her.
"A shadow with a sword, I swear it, I saw. Are you blind, the girl loved him! Help her!" She glanced
back, saw the second guardsman fall, his blade dropping from limp fingers. Outside there was shouting.
More angry men would be bursting in on them any instant, she knew. "She is innocent, Robar. You have
my word, on my husband's grave and my honor as a Stark! "
That resolved him. "I will hold them," Ser Robar said. "Get her away." He turned and went out.
The fire had reached the wall and was creeping up the side of the tent. Ser Emmon was pressing Brienne
hard, him in his enameled yellow steel and her in wool. He had forgotten Catelyn, until the iron brazier
came crashing into the back of his head. Helmed as he was, the blow did no lasting harm, but it sent him
to his knees. "Brienne, with me," Catelyn commanded. The girl was not slow to see the chance. A slash,
and the green silk parted. They stepped out into darkness and the chill of dawn. Loud voices came from
the other side of the pavilion. "This way," Catelyn
urged, "and slowly. We must not run, or they will ask why. Walk easy, as if nothing were amiss."
Brienne thrust her sword blade through her belt and fell in beside Catelyn. The night air smelled of rain.
Behind them, the king's pavilion was well ablaze, flames rising high against the dark. No one made any
move to stop them. Men rushed past them, shouting of fire and murder and sorcery. Others stood in
small groups and spoke in low voices. A few were praying, and one young squire was on his knees,
sobbing openly.
Renly's battles were already coming apart as the rumors spread from mouth to mouth. The nightfires had
burned low, and as the east began to lighten the immense mass of Storm's End emerged like a dream of
stone while wisps of pale mist raced across the field, flying from the sun on wings of wind. Morning
ghosts, she had heard Old Nan call them once, spirits returning to their graves. And Renly one of them
now, gone like his brother Robert, like her own dear Ned.


"I never held him but as he died," Brienne said quietly as they walked through the spreading chaos. Her
voice sounded as if she might break at any instant. "He was laughing one moment, and suddenly the
blood was everywhere . . . my lady, I do not understand. Did you see, did you . . . ?"
"I saw a shadow. I thought it was Renly's shadow at the first, but it was his brother's."
"Lord Stannis?"
"I felt him. It makes no sense, I know
It made sense enough for Brienne. "I will kill him," the tall homely girl declared. "With my lord's own
sword, I will kill him. I swear it. I swear it. I swear it."
Hal Mollen and the rest of her escort were waiting with the horses. Ser Wendel Manderly was all in a
lather to know what was happening. "My lady, the camp has gone mad," he blurted when he saw them.
"Lord Renly, is he-" He stopped suddenly, staring at Brienne and the blood that drenched her.
"Dead, but not by our hands."
"The battle-" Hal Mollen began.
"There will be no battle." Catelyn mounted, and her escort formed up about her, with Ser Wendel to her
left and Ser Perwyn Frey on her right. "Brienne, we brought mounts enough for twice our number.
Choose one, and come with us."
"I have my own horse, my lady. And my armor-"
"Leave them. We must be well away before they think to look for us. We were both with the king when
he was killed. That will not be forgotten." Wordless, Brienne turned and did as she was bid. "Ride,"
Catelyn
commanded her escort when they were all ahorse. "If any man tries to stop us, cut him down."
As the long fingers of dawn fanned across the fields, color was returning to the world. Where grey men
had sat grey horses armed with shadow spears, the points of ten thousand lances now glinted silverly
cold, and on the myriad flapping banners Catelyn saw the blush of red and pink and orange, the richness
of blues and browns, the blaze of gold and yellow. All the power of Storm's End and Highgarden, the
power that had been Renly's an hour ago. They belong to Stannis now, she realized, even if they do not
know it themselves yet. Where else are they to turn, if not to the last Baratheon? Stannis has won all with
a single evil stroke.
I am the rightful king, he had declared, his jaw clenched hard as iron, and your son no less a traitor than
my brother here. His day will come as well.
A chill went through her.
CHAPTER 34
JON


The hill jutted above the dense tangle of forest, rising solitary and sudden, its windswept heights visible
from miles off. The wildlings called it the Fist of the First Men, rangers said. It did look like a fist, Jon
Snow thought, punching up through earth and wood, its bare brown slopes knuckled with stone.
He rode to the top with Lord Mormont and the officers, leaving Ghost below under the trees. The
direwolf had run off three times as they climbed, twice returning reluctantly to Jon's whistle. The third
time, the Lord Commander lost patience and snapped, "Let him go, boy. I want to reach the crest before
dusk. Find the wolf later."
The way up was steep and stony, the summit crowned by a chest-high wall of tumbled rocks. They had
to circle some distance west before they found a gap large enough to admit the horses. "This is good
ground, Thoren," the Old Bear proclaimed when at last they attained the top. "We could scarce hope for
better. We'll make our camp here to await Halfhand." The Lord Commander swung down off his saddle,
dislodging the raven from his shoulder. Complaining loudly, the bird took to the air.
The views atop the hill were bracing, yet it was the ringwall that drew Jon's eye, the weathered grey
stones with their white patches of lichen, their beards of green moss. It was said that the Fist had been a
ringfort of the First Men in the Dawn Age. "An old place, and strong," Thoren Smallwood said.
"Old," Mormont's raven screamed as it flapped in noisy circles about their heads. "Old, old, old."
"Quiet," Mormont growled up at the bird. The Old Bear was too proud to admit to weakness, but Jon
was not deceived. The strain of keeping up with younger men was taking its toll.
"These heights will be easy to defend, if need be," Thoren pointed out as he walked his horse along the
ring of stones, his sable-trimmed cloak stirring in the wind.
"Yes, this place will do." The Old Bear lifted a hand to the wind, and raven landed on his forearm, claws
scrabbling against his black ringmail.
"What about water, my lord?" Jon wondered.
"We crossed a brook at the foot of the hill."
"A long climb for a drink," Jon pointed out, "and outside the ring of stones."
Thoren said, "Are you too lazy to climb a hill, boy?"
When Lord Mormont said, "We're not like to find another place as strong. We'll carry water, and make
certain we are well supplied," Jon knew better than to argue. So the command was given, and the
brothers of the Night's Watch raised their camp behind the stone ring the First Men had made. Black
tents sprouted like mushrooms after a rain, and blankets and bedrolls covered the bare ground. Stewards
tethered the garrons in long lines, and saw them fed and watered. Foresters took their axes to the trees in
the waning afternoon light to harvest enough wood to see them through the night. A score of builders set
to clearing brush, digging latrines, and untying their bundles of fire-hardened stakes. "I will have every
opening in the ringwall ditched and staked before dark," the Old Bear had commanded.
Once he'd put up the Lord Commander's tent and seen to their horses, Jon Snow descended the hill in


search of Ghost. The direwolf came at once, all in silence. One moment Jon was striding beneath the
trees, whistling and shouting, alone in the green, pinecones and fallen leaves under his feet; the next, the
great white direwolf was walking beside him, pale as morning mist.
But when they reached the ringfort, Ghost balked again. He padded forward warily to sniff at the gap in
the stones, and then retreated, as if he did not like what he'd smelled. Jon tried to grab him by the scruff
of his neck and haul him bodily inside the ring, no easy task; the wolf weighed as much as he did, and
was stronger by far. "Ghost, what's wrong with you?" It was not like him to be so unsettled. in the end
Jon had to give it up. "As you will," he told the wolf. "Go, hunt." The red eyes watched him as he made
his way back through the mossy stones.
They ought to be safe here. The hill offered commanding views, and the slopes were precipitous to the
north and west and only slightly more
gentle to the east. Yet as the dusk deepened and darkness seeped into the hollows between the trees,
Jon's sense of foreboding grew. This is the haunted forest, he told himself. Maybe there are ghosts here,
the spirits of the First Men. This was their place, once.
"Stop acting the boy," he told himself. Clambering atop the piled rocks, Jon gazed off toward the setting
sun. He could see the light shimmering like hammered gold off the surface of the Milkwater as it curved
away to the south. Upriver the land was more rugged, the dense forest giving way to a series of bare
stony hills that rose high and wild to the north and west. On the horizon stood the mountains like a great
shadow, range on range of them receding into the blue-grey distance, their jagged peaks sheathed
eternally in snow. Even from afar they looked vast and cold and inhospitable.
Closer at hand, it was the trees that ruled. To south and east the wood went on as far as Jon could see,
a vast tangle of root and limb painted in a thousand shades of green, with here and there a patch of red
where a weirwood shouldered through the pines and sentinels, or a blush of yellow where some
broadleafs had begun to turn. When the wind blew, he could hear the creak and groan of branches older
than he was. A thousand leaves fluttered, and for a moment the forest seemed a deep green sea,
storm-tossed and heaving, eternal and unknowable.
Ghost was not like to be alone down there, he thought. Anything could be moving under that sea,
creeping toward the ringfort through the dark of the wood, concealed beneath those trees. Anything.
How would they ever know? He stood there for a long time, until the sun vanished behind the
saw-toothed mountains and darkness began to creep through the forest.
"Jon?" Samwell Tarly called up. "I thought it looked like you. Are you well? "
"Well enough." Jon hopped down. "How did you fare today?"
"Well. I fared well. Truly."
Jon was not about to share his disquiet with his friend, not when Samwell Tarly was at last beginning to
find his courage. "The Old Bear means to wait here for Qhorin Halfhand and the men from the Shadow
Tower."
"It seems a strong place," said Sam. "A ringfort of the First Men. Do you think there were battles fought
here?"
"No doubt. You'd best get a bird ready. Mormont will want to send back word."


"I wish I could send them all. They hate being caged."
"You would too, if you could fly."
"If I could fly, I'd be back at Castle Black eating a pork pie," said Sam.
Jon clapped him on the shoulder with his burned hand. They walked
back through the camp together. Cookfires were being lit all around them. Overhead, the stars were
coming out. The long red tail of Mormont's Torch burned as bright as the moon. Jon heard the ravens
before he saw them. Some were calling his name. The birds were not shy when it came to making noise.
They feel it too. "I'd best see to the Old Bear," he said. "He gets noisy when he isn't fed as well."
He found Mormont talking with Thoren Smallwood and half a dozen other officers. "There you are," the
old man said gruffly. "Bring us some hot wine, if you would. The night is chilly."
"Yes, my lord." Jon built a cookfire, claimed a small cask of Mormont's favorite robust red from stores,
and poured it into a kettle. He hung the kettle above the flames while he gathered the rest of his
ingredients. The Old Bear was particular about his hot spiced wine. So much cinnamon and so much
nutmeg and so much honey, not a drop more. Raisins and nuts and dried berries, but no lemon, that was
the rankest sort of southron heresy-which was queer, since he always took lemon in his morning beer.
The drink must be hot to warm a man properly, the Lord Commander insisted, but the wine must never
be allowed to come to a boil. Jon kept a careful eye on the kettle.
As he worked, he could hear the voices from inside the tent. Jarman Buckwell said, "The easiest road up
into the Frostfangs is to follow the Milkwater back to its source. Yet if we go that path, Rayder will
know of our approach, certain as sunrise."
"The Giant's Stair might serve," said Ser Mallador Locke, "or the Skirling Pass, if it's clear."
The wine was steaming. Jon lifted the kettle off the fire, filled eight cups, and carried them into the tent.
The Old Bear was peering at the crude map Sam had drawn him that night back in Craster's Keep. He
took a cup from Jon's tray, tried a swallow of wine, and gave a brusque nod of approval. His raven
hopped down his arm. "Corn, " it said. "Corn. Corn. "
Ser Ottyn Wythers waved the wine away. "I would not go into the mountains at all," he said in a thin,
tired voice. "The Frostfangs have a cruel bite even in summer, and now . . . if we should be caught by a
storm . . ."
"I do not mean to risk the Frostfangs unless I must," said Mormont. "Wildlings can no more live on snow
and stone than we can. They will emerge from the heights soon, and for a host of any size, the only route
is along the Milkwater. If so, we are strongly placed here. They cannot hope to slip by us."
"They may not wish to. They are thousands, and we will be three
hundred when the Halfhand reaches us." Ser Mallador accepted a cup from Jon.
"If it comes to battle, we could not hope for better ground than here," declared Mormont. "We'll
strengthen the defenses. Pits and spikes, caltrops scattered on the slopes, every breach mended. Jarman,


I'll want your sharpest eyes as watchers. A ring of them, all around us and along the river, to warn of any
approach. Hide them up in trees. And we had best start bringing up water too, more than we need. We'll
dig cisterns. it will keep the men occupied, and may prove needful later."
"My rangers-" started Thoren Smallwood.
"Your rangers will limit their ranging to this side of the river until the Halfhand reaches us. After that, we'll
see. I will not lose more of my men."
"Mance Rayder might be massing his host a day's ride from here, and we'd never know," Smallwood
complained.
"We know where the wildlings are massing," Mormont came back. "We had it from Craster. I mislike
the man, but I do not think he lied to us in this."
"As you say." Smallwood took a sullen leave. The others finished their wine and followed, more
courteously.
"Shall I bring you supper, my lord?" Jon asked.
"Corn," the raven cried. Mormont did not answer at once. When he did he said only, "Did your wolf find
game today?"
"He's not back yet."
"We could do with fresh meat." Mormont dug into a sack and offered his raven a handful of corn. "You
think I'm wrong to keep the rangers close? "
"That's not for me to say, my lord."
"It is if you're asked."
"If the rangers must stay in sight of the Fist, I don't see how they can hope to find my uncle," Jon
admitted.
"They can't." The raven pecked at the kernels in the Old Bear's palm. "Two hundred men or ten
thousand, the country is too vast." The corn gone, Mormont turned his hand over.
"You would not give up the search?"
"Maester Aemon thinks you clever." Mormont moved the raven to his shoulder. The bird tilted its head
to one side, little eyes a-glitter.
The answer was there. "Is it . . . it seems to me that it might be easier for one man to find two hundred
than for two hundred to find one."
The raven gave a cackling scream, but the Old Bear smiled through the grey of his beard. "This many
men and horses leave a trail even
Aemon could follow. On this hill, our fires ought to be visible as far off as the foothills of the Frostfangs.
If Ben Stark is alive and free, he will come to us, I have no doubt."


"Yes," said Jon, "but . . . what if
". . . he's dead?" Mormont asked, not unkindly.
Jon nodded, reluctantly.
"Dead," the raven said. "Dead. Dead."
"He may come to us anyway," the Old Bear said. "As Othor did, and Jafer Flowers. I dread that as
much as you, Jon, but we must admit the possibility."
"Dead," his raven cawed, ruffling its wings. Its voice grew louder and more shrill. "Dead."
Mormont stroked the bird's black feathers, and stifled a sudden yawn with the back of his hand. "I will
forsake supper, I believe. Rest will serve me better. Wake me at first light."
"Sleep well, my lord." Jon gathered up the empty cups and stepped outside. He heard distant laughter,
the plaintive sound of pipes. A great blaze was crackling in the center of the camp, and he could smell
stew cooking. The Old Bear might not be hungry, but Jon was. He drifted over toward the fire.
Dywen was holding forth, spoon in hand. "I know this wood as well as any man alive, and I tell you, I
wouldn't care to ride through it alone tonight. Can't you smell it?"
Grenn was staring at him with wide eyes, but Dolorous Edd said, "All I smell is the shit of two hundred
horses. And this stew. Which has a similar aroma, now that I come to sniff it."
"I've got your similar aroma right here." Hake patted his dirk. Grumbling, he filled Jon's bowl from the
kettle.
The stew was thick with barley, carrot, and onion, with here and there a ragged shred of salt beef,
softened in the cooking.
"What is it you smell, Dywen?" asked Grenn.
The forester sucked on his spoon a moment. He had taken out his teeth. His face was leathery and
wrinkled, his hands gnarled as old roots. "Seems to me like it smells . . . well . . . cold. "
"Your head's as wooden as your teeth," Hake told him. "There's no smell to cold."
There is, thought Jon, remembering the night in the Lord Commander's chambers. It smells like death.
Suddenly he was not hungry anymore. He gave his stew to Grenn, who looked in need of an extra
supper to warm him against the night.
The wind was blowing briskly when he left. By morning, frost would cover the ground, and the tent
ropes would be stiff and frozen. A few fingers of spiced wine sloshed in the bottom of the kettle. Jon fed
fresh
wood to the fire and put the kettle over the flames to reheat. He flexed his fingers as he waited,
squeezing and spreading until the hand tingled. The first watch had taken up their stations around the
perimeter of the camp. Torches flickered all along the ringwall. The night was moonless, but a thousand


stars shone overhead.
A sound rose out of the darkness, faint and distant, but unmistakable: the howling of wolves. Their
voices rose and fell, a chilly song, and lonely. It made the hairs rise along the back of his neck. Across
the fire, a pair of red eyes regarded him from the shadows. The light of the flames made them glow.
"Ghost," Jon breathed, surprised. "So you came inside after all, eh?" The white wolf often hunted all
night; he had not expected to see him again till daybreak. "Was the hunting so bad?" he asked. "Here. To
me, Ghost."
The direwolf circled the fire, sniffing Jon, sniffing the wind, never still. It did not seem as if he were after
meat right now. When the dead came walking, Ghost knew He woke me, warned me. Alarmed, he got
to his feet. "is something out there? Ghost, do you have a scent?" Dywen said he smelled cold.
The direwolf loped off, stopped, looked back. He wants me to follow Pulling up the hood of his cloak,
Jon walked away from the tents, away from the warmth of his fire, past the lines of shaggy little garrons.
One of the horses whickered nervously when Ghost padded by. Jon soothed him with a word and
paused to stroke his muzzle. He could hear the wind whistling through cracks in the rocks as they neared
the ringwall. A voice called out a challenge. Jon stepped into the torchlight. "I need to fetch water for the
Lord Commander."
"Go on, then," the guard said. "Be quick about it." Huddled beneath his black cloak, with his hood
drawn up against the wind, the man never even looked to see if he had a bucket.
Jon slipped sideways between two sharpened stakes while Ghost slid beneath them. A torch had been
thrust down into a crevice, its flames flying pale orange banners when the gusts came. He snatched it up
as he squeezed through the gap between the stones. Ghost went racing down the hill. Jon followed more
slowly, the torch thrust out before him as he made his descent. The camp sounds faded behind him. The
night was black, the slope steep, stony, and uneven. A moment's inattention would be a sure way to
break an ankle . . . or his neck. What am I doing? he asked himself as he picked his way down.
The trees stood beneath him, warriors armored in bark and leaf, deployed in their silent ranks awaiting
the command to storm the hill. Black, they seemed . . . it was only when his torchlight brushed against
them that Jon glimpsed a flash of green. Faintly, he heard the sound of
water flowing over rocks. Ghost vanished in the underbrush. Jon struggled after him, listening to the call
of the brook, to the leaves sighing in the wind. Branches clutched at his cloak, while overhead thick limbs
twined together and shut out the stars.
He found Ghost lapping from the stream. "Ghost," he called, "to me. Now" When the direwolf raised his
head, his eyes glowed red and baleful, and water streamed down from his jaws like slaver. There was
something fierce and terrible about him in that instant. And then he was off, bounding past Jon, racing
through the trees. "Ghost, no, stay," he shouted, but the wolf paid no heed. The lean white shape was
swallowed by the dark, and Jon had only two choices-to climb the hill again, alone, or to follow.
He followed, angry, holding the torch out low so he could see the rocks that threatened to trip him with
every step, the thick roots that seemed to grab as his feet, the holes where a man could twist an ankle.
Every few feet he called again for Ghost, but the night wind was swirling amongst the trees and it drank
the words. This is madness, he thought as he plunged deeper into the trees. He was about to turn back
when he glimpsed a flash of white off ahead and to the right, back toward the hill. He jogged after it,
cursing under his breath.


A quarter way around the Fist he chased the wolf before he lost him again. Finally he stopped to catch
his breath amidst the scrub, thorns, and tumbled rocks at the base of the hill. Beyond the torchlight, the
dark pressed close.
A soft scrabbling noise made him turn. Jon moved toward the sound, stepping carefully among boulders
and thornbushes. Behind a fallen tree, he came on Ghost again. The direwolf was digging furiously,
kicking up dirt.
"What have you found?" Jon lowered the torch, revealing a rounded mound of soft earth. A grave, he
thought. But whose?
He knelt, jammed the torch into the ground beside him. The soil was loose, sandy. Jon pulled it out by
the fistful. There were no stones, no roots. Whatever was here had been put here recently. Two feet
down, his fingers touched cloth. He had been expecting a corpse, fearing a corpse, but this was
something else. He pushed against the fabric and felt small, hard shapes beneath, unyielding. There was
no smell, no sign of graveworms. Ghost backed off and sat on his haunches, watching.
Jon brushed the loose soil away to reveal a rounded bundle perhaps two feet across. He jammed his
fingers down around the edges and worked it loose. When he pulled it free, whatever was inside shifted
and clinked. Treasure, he thought, but the shapes were wrong to be coins, and the sound was wrong for
metal.
A length of frayed rope bound the bundle together. Jon unsheathed his
dagger and cut it, groped for the edges of the cloth, and pulled. The bundle turned, and its contents
spilled out onto the ground, glittering dark and bright. He saw a dozen knives, leaf-shaped spearheads,
numerous arrowheads. Jon picked up a dagger blade, featherlight and shiny black, hiltless. Torchlight ran
along its edge, a thin orange line that spoke of razor sharpness. Dragonglass. What the maesters call
obsidian. Had Ghost uncovered some ancient cache of the children of the forest, buried here for
thousands of years? The Fist of the First Men was an old place, only . . .
Beneath the dragonglass was an old warhorn, made from an auroch's horn and banded in bronze. Jon
shook the dirt from inside it, and a stream of arrowheads fell out. He let them fall, and pulled up a corner
of the cloth the weapons had been wrapped in, rubbing it between his fingers. Good wool, thick, a
double weave, damp but not rotted. It could not have been long in the ground. And it was dark. He
seized a handful and pulled it close to the torch. Not dark. Black.
Even before Jon stood and shook it out, he knew what he had: the black cloak of a Sworn Brother of
the Night's Watch.
CHAPTER 35
BRAN
Alebelly found him in the forge, working the bellows for Mikken. "Maester wants you in the turret,
m'lord prince. There's been a bird from the king."


"From Robb?" Excited, Bran did not wait for Hodor, but let Alebelly carry him up the steps. He was a
big man, though not so big as Hodor and nowhere near as strong. By the time they reached the maester's
turret he was red-faced and puffing. Rickon was there before them, and both Walder Freys as well.
Maester Luwin sent Alebelly away and closed his door. "My lords," he said gravely, "we have had a
message from His Grace, with both good news and ill. He has won a great victory in the west, shattering
a Lannister army at a place named Oxcross, and has taken several castles as well. He writes us from
Ashemark, formerly the stronghold of House Marbrand."
Rickon tugged at the maester's robe. "Is Robb coming home?"
"Not just yet, I fear. There are battles yet to fight."
"Was it Lord Tywin he defeated?" asked Bran.
"No," said the maester. "Ser Stafford Lannister commanded the enemy host. He was slain in the battle."
Bran had never even heard of Ser Stafford Lannister. He found himself agreeing with Big Walder when
he said, "Lord Tywin is the only one who matters."
"Tell Robb I want him to come home," said Rickon. "He can bring his
wolf home too, and Mother and Father." Though he knew Lord Eddard was dead, sometimes Rickon
forgot . . . willfully, Bran suspected. His little brother was stubborn as only a boy of four can be.
Bran was glad for Robb's victory, but disquieted as well. He remembered what Osha had said the day
that his brother had led his army out Of Winterfell. He's marching the wrong way, the wildling woman
had insisted.
"Sadly, no victory is without cost." Maester Luwin turned to the Walders. "My lords, your uncle Ser
Stevron Frey was among those who lost their lives at Oxcross. He took a wound in the battle, Robb
writes. It was not thought to be serious, but three days later he died in his tent, asleep."
Big Walder shrugged. "He was very old. Five-and-sixty, I think. Too old for battles. He was always
saying he was tired."
Little Walder hooted. "Tired of waiting for our grandfather to die, you mean. Does this mean Ser
Emmon's the heir now?"
"Don't be stupid," his cousin said. "The sons of the first son come before the second son. Ser Ryman is
next in line, and then Edwyn and Black Walder and Petyr Pimple. And then Aegon and all his sons."
"Ryman is old too," said Little Walder. "Past forty, I bet. And he has a bad belly. Do you think he'll be
lord?"
"I'll be lord. I don't care if he is."
Maester Luwin cut in sharply. "You ought to be ashamed of such talk, my lords. Where is your grief?
Your uncle is dead."


"Yes," said Little Walder. "We're very sad."
They weren't, though. Bran got a sick feeling in his belly. They like the taste of this dish better than I do.
He asked Maester Luwin to be excused.
"Very well." The maester rang for help. Hodor must have been busy in the stables. It was Osha who
came. She was stronger than Alebelly, though, and had no trouble lifting Bran in her arms and carrying
him down the steps.
"Osha," Bran asked as they crossed the yard. "Do you know the way north? To the Wall and . . . and
even past?"
"The way's easy. Look for the Ice Dragon, and chase the blue star in the rider's eye." She backed
through a door and started up the winding steps.
"And there are still giants there, and . . . the rest . . . the Others, and the children of the forest too?"
"The giants I've seen, the children I've heard tell of, and the white walkers . . . why do you want to
know?"
"Did you ever see a three-eyed crow?"
"No." She laughed. "And I can't say Id want to." Osha kicked open
the door to his bedchamber and set him in his window seat, where he could watch the yard below.
It seemed only a few heartbeats after she took her leave that the door opened again, and jojen Reed
entered unbidden, with his sister Meera behind him. "You heard about the bird?" Bran asked. The other
boy nodded. "It wasn't a supper like you said. It was a letter from Robb, and we didn't eat it, but-"
"The green dreams take strange shapes sometimes," jojen admitted. "The truth of them is not always
easy to understand."
"Tell me the bad thing you dreamed," Bran said. "The bad thing that is coming to Winterfell."
"Does my lord prince believe me now? Will he trust my words, no matter how queer they sound in his
ears?"
Bran nodded.
"It is the sea that comes."
"The sea?"
"I dreamed that the sea was lapping all around Winterfell. I saw black waves crashing against the gates
and towers, and then the salt water came flowing over the walls and filled the castle. Drowned men were
floating in the yard. When I first dreamed the dream, back at Greywater, I didn't know their faces, but
now I do. That Alebelly is one, the guard who called our names at the feast. Your septon's another. Your
smith as well."
"Mikken?" Bran was as confused as he was dismayed. "But the sea is hundreds and hundreds of leagues


away, and Winterfell's walls are so high the water couldn't get in even if it did come."
"In the dark of night the salt sea will flow over these walls," said jojen. "I saw the dead, bloated and
drowned."
"We have to tell them," Bran said. "Alebelly and Mikken, and Septon Chayle. Tell them not to drown."
"It will not save them," replied the boy in green.
Meera came to the window seat and put a hand on his shoulder. "They will not believe, Bran. No more
than you did."
jojen sat on Bran's bed. "Tell me what you dream."
He was scared, even then, but he had sworn to trust them, and a Stark of Winterfell keeps his sworn
word. "There's different kinds," he said slowly. "There's the wolf dreams, those aren't so bad as the
others. I run and hunt and kill squirrels. And there's dreams where the crow comes and tells me to fly.
Sometimes the tree is in those dreams too, calling my name. That frightens me. But the worst dreams are
when I fall." He looked down into the yard, feeling miserable. "I never used to fall before. When I
climbed. I went everyplace, up on the roofs and along the walls, I used to feed the crows in the Burned
Tower. Mother was afraid that I
would fall but I knew I never would. Only I did, and now when I sleep I fall all the time."
Meera gave his shoulder a squeeze. "Is that all?"
"I guess."
"Warg," said Jojen Reed.
Bran looked at him, his eyes wide. "What?"
"Warg. Shapechanger. Beastling. That is what they will call ~ou, if they should ever hear of your wolf
dreams."
The names made him afraid again. "Who will call me?"
"Your own folk. In fear. Some will hate you if they know what you are. Some will even try to kill you."
Old Nan told scary stories of beastlings and shapechangers sometimes. In the stories they were always
evil. "I'm not like that," Bran said. "I'm not. It's only dreams."
"The wolf dreams are no true dreams. You have your eye closed tight whenever you're awake, but as
you drift off it flutters open and your soul seeks out its other half. The power is strong in you."
"I don't want it. I want to be a knight."
"A knight is what you want. A warg is what you are. You can't change that, Bran, you can't deny it or
push it away. You are the winged wolf, but you will never fly." Jojen got up and walked to the window.
"Unless you open your eye." He put two fingers together and poked Bran in the forehead, hard.


When he raised his hand to the spot, Bran felt only the smooth unbroken skin. There was no eye, not
even a closed one. "How can I open it if it's not there?"
"You will never find the eye with your fingers, Bran. You must search with your heart." Jojen studied
Bran's face with those strange green eyes. "Or are you afraid?"
"Maester Luwin says there's nothing in dreams that a man need fear. "
"There is," said Jojen.
"What?"
"The past. The future. The truth."
They left him more muddled than ever. When he was alone, Bran tried to open his third eye, but he
didn't know how. No matter how he wrinkled his forehead and poked at it, he couldn't see any different
than he'd done before. In the days that followed, he tried to warn others about what Jojen had seen, but
it didn't go as he wanted. Mikken thought it was funny. "The sea, is it? Happens I always wanted to see
the sea. Never got where I could go to it, though. So now it's coming to me, is it? The gods are good, to
take such trouble for a poor smith."
"The gods will take me when they see fit," Septon Chayle said qui
etly, "though I scarcely think it likely that I'll drown, Bran. I grew up on the banks of the White Knife,
you know. I'm quite the strong swimmer."
Alebelly was the only one who paid the warning any heed. He went to talk to jojen himself, and
afterward stopped bathing and refused to go near the well. Finally he stank so bad that six of the other
guards threw him into a tub of scalding water and scrubbed him raw while he screamed that they were
going to drown him like the frogboy had said. Thereafter he scowled whenever he saw Bran or jojen
about the castle, and muttered under his breath.
It was a few days after Alebelly's bath that Ser Rodrik returned to Winterfell with his prisoner, a fleshy
young man with fat moist lips and long hair who smelled like a privy, even worse than Alebelly had.
"Reek, he's called," Hayhead said when Bran asked who it was. "I never heard his true name. He served
the Bastard of Bolton and helped him murder Lady Hornwood, they say."
The Bastard himself was dead, Bran learned that evening over supper. Ser Rodrik's men had caught him
on Hornwood land doing something horrible (Bran wasn't quite sure what, but it seemed to be something
you did without your clothes) and shot him down with arrows as he tried to ride away. They came too
late for poor Lady Hornwood, though. After their wedding, the Bastard had locked her in a tower and
neglected to feed her. Bran had heard men saying that when Ser Rodrik had smashed down the door he
found her with her mouth all bloody and her fingers chewed off.
"The monster has tied us a thorny knot," the old knight told Maester Luwin. "Like it or no, Lady
Hornwood was his wife. He made her say the vows before both septon and heart tree, and bedded her
that very night before witnesses. She signed a will naming him as heir and fixed her seal to it."
"Vows made at sword point are not valid," the maester argued.
"Roose Bolton may not agree. Not with land at issue." Ser Rodrik looked unhappy. "Would that I could


take this serving man's head off as well, he's as bad as his master. But I fear I must keep him alive until
Robb returns from his wars. He is the only witness to the worst of the Bastard's crimes. Perhaps when
Lord Bolton hears his tale, he will abandon his claim, but meantime we have Manderly knights and
Dreadfort men killing one another in Hornwood forests, and I lack the strength to stop them." The old
knight turned in his seat and gave Bran a stern look. "And what have you been about while I've been
away, my lord prince? Commanding our guardsmen not to wash? Do you want them smelling like this
Reek, is that it?"
"The sea is coming here," Bran said. "Jojen saw it in a green dream. 'Mebelly is going to drown."
Maester Luwin tugged at his chain collar. "The Reed boy believes he sees the future in his dreams, Ser
Rodrik. I've spoken to Bran about the uncertainty of such prophecies, but if truth be told, there is trouble
along the Stony Shore. Raiders in longships, plundering fishing villages. Raping and burning. Leobald
Tallhart has sent his nephew Benfred to deal with them, but I expect they'll take to their ships and flee at
the first sight of armed men."
"Aye, and strike somewhere else. The Others take all such cowards. They would never dare, no more
than the Bastard of Bolton, if our main strength were not a thousand leagues south." Ser Rodrik looked at
Bran. "What else did the lad tell you?"
"He said the water would flow over our walls. He saw Alebelly drowned, and Mikken and Septon
Chayle too."
Ser Rodrik frowned. "Well, should it happen that I need to ride against these raiders myself, I shan't take
Alebelly, then. He didn't see me drowned, did he? No? Good."
it heartened Bran to hear that. Maybe they won't drown, then, he thought. ff they stay away from the
sea.
Meera thought so too, later that night when she and Joien met Bran in his room to play a three-sided
game of tiles, but her brother shook his head. "The things I see in green dreams can't be changed."
That made his sister angry. "Why would the gods send a warning if we can't heed it and change what's to
come?"
"I don't know," Joien said sadly.
"If you were Alebelly, you'd probably jump into the well to have done with it! He should fight, and Bran
should too."
"Me?" Bran felt suddenly afraid. "What should I fight? Am I going to drown too?"
Meera looked at him guiltily. "I shouldn't have said
He could tell that she was hiding something. "Did you see me in a green dream?" he asked Jojen
nervously. "Was I drowned?"
"Not drowned." Jojen spoke as if every word pained him. "I dreamed of the man who came today, the
one they call Reek. You and your brother lay dead at his feet, and he was skinning off your faces with a
long red blade."


Meera rose to her feet. "If I went to the dungeon, I could drive a spear right through his heart. How
could he murder Bran if he was dead?"
"The gaolers will stop you," Joien said. "The guards. And if you tell them why you want him dead, they'll
never believe."
"I have guards too," Bran reminded them. "Alebelly and Poxy Tym and Hayhead and the rest."
Jojen's mossy eyes were full of pity. "They won't be able to stop him, Bran. I couldn't see why, but I
saw the end of it. I saw you and Rickon in
your crypts, down in the dark with all the dead kings and their stone wolves."
No, Bran thought. No. "If I went away . . . to Greywater, or to the crow, someplace far where they
couldn't find me . . ."
"It will not matter. The dream was green, Bran, and the green dreams do not lie."
CHAPTER 36
TYRION
Vrys stood over the brazier, warming his soft hands. "It would ppear Renly was murdered most fearfully
in the very midst of his army. His throat was opened from ear to ear by a blade that passed through steel
and bone as if they were soft cheese."
"Murdered by whose hand?" Cersei demanded.
"Have you ever considered that too many answers are the same as no answer at all? My informers are
not always as highly placed as we might like. When a king dies, fancies sprout like mushrooms in the
dark. A groom says that Renly was slain by a knight of his own Rainbow Guard. A washerwoman claims
Stannis stole through the heart of his brother's army with his magic sword. Several men-at-arms believe a
woman did the fell deed, but cannot agree on which woman. A maid that Renly had spurned, claims one.
A camp follower brought in to serve his pleasure on the eve of battle, says a second. The third ventures
that it might have been the Lady Catelyn Stark."
The queen was not pleased. "Must you waste our time with every rumor the fools care to tell?"
"You pay me well for these rumors, my gracious queen."
"We pay you for the truth, Lord Varys. Remember that, or this small council may grow smaller still."
Varys tittered nervously. "You and your noble brother will leave His Grace with no council at all if you
continue."
"I daresay, the realm could survive a few less councillors," said Littlefinger with a smile.


"Dear dear Petyr," said Varys, "are you not concerned that yours might be the next name on the Hand's
little list?"
"Before you, Varys? I should never dream of it."
"Mayhaps we will be brothers on the Wall together, you and I" Varys giggled again.
"Sooner than you'd like, if the next words out of your mouth are not something useful, eunuch." From the
look of her eyes, Cersei was prepared to castrate Varys all over again.
"Might this be some ruse?" asked Littlefinger.
"If so, it is a ruse of surpassing cleverness," said Varys. "It has certainly hoodwinked me."
Tyrion had heard enough. "Joff will be so disappointed," he said. "He was saving such a nice spike for
Renly's head. But whoever did the deed, we must assume Stannis was behind it. The gain is clearly his."
He did not like this news; he had counted on the brothers Baratheon decimating each other in bloody
battle. He could feel his elbow throbbing where the morningstar had laid it open. It did that sometimes in
the damp. He squeezed it uselessly in his hand and asked, "What of Renly's host?"
"The greater part of his foot remains at Bitterbridge." Varys abandoned the brazier to take his seat at the
table. "Most of the lords who rode with Lord Renly to Storm's End have gone over banner-and-blade to
Stannis, with all their chivalry."
"Led by the Florents, I'd wager," said Littlefinger.
Varys gave him a simpering smile. "You would win, my lord. Lord Alester was indeed the first to bend
the knee. Many others followed."
"Many," Tyrion said pointedly, "but not all?"
"Not all," agreed the eunuch. "Not Loras Tyrell, nor Randyll Tarly, nor Mathis Rowan. And Storm's End
itself has not yielded. Ser Cortnay Penrose holds the castle in Renly's name, and will not believe his liege
is dead. He demands to see the mortal remains before he opens his gates, but it seems that Renly's
corpse has unaccountably vanished. Carried away, most likely. A fifth of Renly's knights departed with
Ser Loras rather than bend the knee to Stannis. It's said the Knight of Flowers went mad when he saw
his king's body, and slew three of Renly's guards in his wrath, among them Emmon Cuy and Robar
Royce."
A pity he stopped at three, thought Tyrion.
"Ser Loras is likely making for Bitterbridge," Varys went on. "His sister is there, Renly's queen, as well
as a great many soldiers who suddenly find themselves kingless. Which side will they take now? A
ticklish question. Many serve the lords who remained at Storm's End, and those lords now belong to
Stannis."
Tyrion leaned forward. "There is a chance here, it seems to me. Win Loras Tyrell to our cause and Lord
Mace Tyrell and his bannermen might join us as well. They may have sworn their swords to Stannis for
the moment, yet they cannot love the man, or they would have been his from the start."


"Is their love for us any greater?" asked Cersei.
"Scarcely," said Tyrion. "They loved Renly, clearly, but Renly is slain. Perhaps we can give them good
and sufficient reasons to prefer Joffrey to Stannis . . . if we move quickly."
"What sort of reasons do you mean to give them?"
"Gold reasons," Littlefinger suggested at once.
Varys made a tsking sound. "Sweet Petyr, surely you do not mean to suggest that these puissant lords
and noble knights could be bought like so many chickens in the market."
"Have you been to our markets of late, Lord Varys?" asked Littlefinger. "You'd find it easier to buy a
lord than a chicken, I daresay. Of course, lords cluck prouder than chickens, and take it ill if you offer
them coin like a tradesman, but they are seldom adverse to taking gifts . . . honors, lands, castles . . ."
"Bribes might sway some of the lesser lords," Tyrion said, "but never Highgarden."
"True," Littlefinger admitted. "The Knight of Flowers is the key there. Mace Tyrell has two older sons,
but Loras has always been his favorite. Win him, and Highgarden will be yours."
Yes, Tyrion thought. "It seems to me we should take a lesson from the late Lord Renly. We can win the
Tyrell alliance as he did. With a marriage."
Varys understood the quickest. "You think to wed King Joffrey to Man gaery Tyrell."
"I do." Renly's young queen was no more than fifteen, sixteen, he seemed to recall . . . older than Joffrey,
but a few years were nothing, it was so neat and sweet he could taste it.
"Joffrey is betrothed to Sansa Stark," Cersei objected.
"Marriage contracts can be broken. What advantage is there in wedding the king to the daughter of a
dead traitor?"
Littlefinger spoke up. "You might point out to His Grace that the Tyrells are much wealthier than the
Starks, and that Margaery is said to be lovely . . . and beddable besides."
"Yes," said Tyrion, "Joff ought to like that well enough."
"My son is too young to care about such things."
"You think so?" asked Tyrion. "He's thirteen, Cersei. The same age at which I married."
"You shamed us all with that sorry episode. Joffrey is made of finer stuff."
"So fine that he had Ser Boros rip off Sansa's gown."
"He was angry with the girl."
"He was angry with that cook's boy who spilled the soup last night as well, but he didn't strip him
naked."


"This was not a matter of some spilled soup-"
No, it was a matter of some pretty teats. After that business in the yard, Tyrion had spoken with Varys
about how they might arrange for Joffrey to visit Chataya's. A taste of honey might sweeten the boy, he
hoped. He might even be grateful, gods forbid, and Tyrion could do with a shade more gratitude from his
sovereign. It would need to be done secretly, of course. The tricky bit would be parting him from the
Hound. "The dog is never far from his master's heels," he'd observed to Varys, "but all men sleep. And
some gamble and whore and visit winesinks as well."
"The Hound does all these things, if that is your question."
"No," said Tyrion. "My question is when."
Varys had laid a finger on his cheek, smiling enigmatically. "My lord, a suspicious man might think you
wished to find a time when Sandor Clegane was not protecting King Joffrey, the better to do the boy
some harm."
"Surely you know me better than that, Lord Varys," Tyrion said. "Why, all I want is for Joffrey to love
me."
The eunuch had promised to look into the matter. The war made its own demands, though; Joffrey's
initiation into manhood would need to wait. "Doubtless you know your son better than I do," he made
himself tell Cersei, "but regardless, there's still much to be said for a Tyrell marriage. It may be the only
way that Joffrey lives long enough to reach his wedding night."
Littlefinger agreed. "The Stark girl brings Joffrey nothing but her body, sweet as that may be. Margaery
Tyrell brings fifty thousand swords and all the strength of Highgarden."
"Indeed." Varys laid a soft hand on the queen's sleeve. "You have a mother's heart, and I know His
Grace loves his little sweetling. Yet kings must learn to put the needs of the realm before their own
desires. I say this offer must be made."
The queen pulled free of the eunuch's touch. "You would not speak so if you were women. Say what
you will, my lords, but Joffrey is too proud to settle for Renly's leavings. He will never consent."
Tyrion shrugged. "When the king comes of age in three years, he may
give or withhold his consent as he pleases. Until then, you are his regent and I am his Hand, and he will
marry whomever we tell him to marry. Leavings or no."
Cersei's quiver was empty. "Make your offer then, but gods save you all if Joff does not like this girl."
"I'm so pleased we can agree," Tyrion said. "Now, which of us shall go to Bitterbridge? We must reach
Ser Loras with our offer before his blood can cool."
"You mean to send one of the council?"
"I can scarcely expect the Knight of Flowers to treat with Bronn or Shagga, can I? The Tyrells are
proud."


His sister wasted no time trying to twist the situation to her advantage. "Ser Jacelyn Bywater is nobly
born. Send him."
Tyrion shook his head. "We need someone who can do more than repeat our words and fetch back a
reply. Our envoy must speak for king and council and settle the matter quickly."
"The Hand speaks with the king's voice." Candlelight gleamed green as wildfire in Cersei's eyes. "If we
send you, Tyrion, it will be as if Joffrey went himself. And who better, You wield words as skillfully as
Jaime wields a sword."
Are you that eager to get me out of the city, Cersei? "You are too kind, sister, but it seems to me that a
boy's mother is better fitted to arrange his marriage than any uncle. And you have a gift for winning
friends that I could never hope to match."
Her eyes narrowed. "Joff needs me at his side."
"Your Grace, my lord Hand," said Littlefinger, "the king needs both of you here. Let me go in your
stead."
"You?" What gain does he see in this? Tyrion wondered.
"I am of the king's council, yet not the king's blood, so I would make a poor hostage. I knew Ser Loras
passing well when he was here at court, and gave him no cause to mislike me. Mace Tyrell bears me no
enmity that I know of, and I flatter myself that I am not unskilled in negotiation."
He has us. Tyrion did not trust Petyr Baelish, nor did he want the man out of his sight, yet what other
choice was left him? It must be Littlefinger or Tyrion himself, and he knew full well that if he left King's
Landing for any length of time, all that he had managed to accomplish would be undone. "There is fighting
between here and Bitterbridge," he said cautiously. "And you can be past certain that Lord Stannis will
be dispatching his own shepherds to gather in his brother's wayward lambs."
"I've never been frightened of shepherds. It's the sheep who trouble me. Still, I suppose an escort might
be in order."
"I can spare a hundred gold cloaks," Tyrion said.
"Five hundred."
"Three hundred."
"And forty more-twenty knights with as many squires. If I arrive without a knightly tail, the Tyrells will
think me of small account."
That was true enough. "Agreed."
"I'll include Horror and Slobber in my party, and send them on to their lord father afterward. A gesture
of goodwill. We need Paxter Redwyne, he's Mace Tyrell's oldest friend, and a great power in his own
right."
"And a traitor," the queen said, balking. "The Arbor would have declared for Renly with all the rest,
except that Redwyne knew full well his whelps would suffer for it."


"Renly is dead, Your Grace," Littlefinger pointed out, "and neither Stannis nor Lord Paxter will have
forgotten how Redwyne galleys closed the sea during the siege of Storm's End. Restore the twins and
perchance we may win Redwyne's love."
Cersei remained unconvinced. "The Others can keep his love, I want his swords and sails. Holding tight
to those twins is the best way to make certain that we'll have them."
Tyrion had the answer. "Then let us send Ser Hobber back to the Arbor and keep Ser Horas here. Lord
Paxter ought to be clever enough to riddle out the meaning of that, I should think."
The suggestion was carried without protest, but Littlefinger was not done. "We'll want horses. Swift and
strong. The fighting will make remounts hard to come by. A goodly supply of gold will also be needed,
for those gifts we spoke of earlier."
"Take as much as you require. If the city falls, Stannis will steal it all anyway."
"I'll want my commission in writing. A document that will leave Mace Tyrell in no doubt as to my
authority, granting me full power to treat with him concerning this match and any other arrangements that
might be required, and to make binding pledges in the king's name. It should be signed by Joffrey and
every member of this council, and bear all our seals."
Tyrion shifted uncomfortably. "Done. Will that be all? I remind you, there's a long road between here
and Bitterbridge."
"I'll be riding it before dawn breaks." Littlefinger rose. "I trust that on my return, the king will see that I
am suitably rewarded for my valiant efforts in his cause?"
Varys giggled. "Joffrey is such a grateful sovereign, I'm certain you will have no cause to complain, my
good brave lord."
The queen was more direct. "What do you want, Petyr?"
Littlefinger glanced at Tyrion with a sly smile. "I shall need to give that some consideration. No doubt I'll
think of something." He sketched an airy bow and took his leave, as casual as if he were off to one of his
brothels.
Tyrion glanced out the window. The fog was so thick that he could not even see the curtain wall across
the yard. A few dim lights shone indistinct through that greyness. A foul day for travel, he thought. He did
not envy Petyr Baelish. "We had best see to drawing up those documents. Lord Varys, send for
parchment and quill. And someone will need to wake Joffrey."
It was still grey and dark when the meeting finally ended. Varys scurried off alone, his soft slippers
whisking along the floor. The Lannisters lingered a moment by the door. "How comes your chain,
brother?" the queen asked as Ser Preston fastened a vair-lined cloth-of-silver cloak about her shoulders.
"Link by link, it grows longer. We should thank the gods that Ser Cortnay Penrose is as stubborn as he
is. Stannis will never march north with Storm's End untaken in his rear."
"Tyrion, I know we do not always agree on policy, but it seems to me that I was wrong about you. You
are not so big a fool as I imagined. In truth, I realize now that you have been a great help. For that I


thank you. You must forgive me if I have spoken to you harshly in the past."
"Must I?" He gave her a shrug, a smile. "Sweet sister, you have said nothing that requires forgiveness."
"Today, you mean?" They both laughed . . . and Cersei leaned over and planted a quick, soft kiss on his
brow.
Too astonished for words, Tyrion could only watch her stride off down the hall, Ser Preston at her side.
"Have I lost my wits, or did my sister just kiss me?" he asked Bronn when she was gone.
"Was it so sweet?"
"It was . . . unanticipated." Cersei had been behaving queerly of late. Tyrion found it very unsettling. "I
am trying to recall the last time she kissed me. I could not have been more than six or seven. Jaime had
dared her to do it."
"The woman's finally taken note of your charms."
"No," Tyrion said. "No, the woman is hatching something. Best find out what, Bronn. You know I hate
surprises."
CHAPTER 37
THEON
Theon wiped the spittle off his cheek with the back of his hand. "Robb will gut you, Greyjoy," Benfred
Tallheart screamed. "He'll feed your turncloak's heart to his wolf, you piece of sheep dung."
Aeron Damphair's voice cut through the insults like a sword through cheese. "Now you must kill him."
"I have questions for him first," said Theon.
"Puck your questions." Benfred hung bleeding and helpless between Stygg and Werlag. "You'll choke on
them before you get any answers from me, craven. Turncloak."
Uncle Aeron was relentless. "When he spits on you, he spits on all of us. He spits on the Drowned God.
He must die."
"My father gave me the command here, Uncle."
"And sent me to counsel YOU."
And to watch me. Theon dare not push matters too far with his uncle. The command was his, yes, but
his men had a faith in the Drowned God that they did not have in him, and they were terrified of Aeron
Damphair. I cannot fault them for that.
"You'll lose your head for this, Greyjoy. The crows will eat the jelly of your eyes." Benfred tried to spit


again, but only managed a little blood. "The Others bugger your wet god."
Tallhart, you've spit away your life, Theon thought. "Stygg, silence him," he said.
They forced Benfred to his knees. Werlag tore the rabbitskin off his belt and jammed it between his
teeth to stop his shouting. Stygg unlimbered his axe.
"No," Aeron Damphair declared. "He must be given to the god. The old way."
What does it matter? Dead is dead. "Take him, then."
"You will come as well. You command here. The offering should come from you."
That was more than Theon could stomach. "You are the priest, Uncle, I leave the god to you. Do me the
same kindness and leave the battles to me." He waved his hand, and Werlag and Stygg began to drag
their captive off toward the shore. Aeron Damphair gave his nephew a reproachful look, then followed.
Down to the pebbled beach they would go, to drown Benfred Tallhart in salt water. The old way.
Perhaps it's a kindness, Theon told himself as he stalked off in the other direction. Stygg was hardly the
most expert of headsmen, and Benfred had a neck thick as a boar's, heavy with muscle and fat. I used to
mock him for it, just to see how angry I could make him, he remembered. That had been, what, three
years past? When Ned Stark had ridden to Torrhen's Square to see Ser Helman, Theon had
accompanied him and spent a fortnight in Benfred's company.
He could hear the rough noises of victory from the crook in the road where the battle had been fought . .
. if you'd go so far as to call it a battle. More like slaughtering sheep, if truth be told. Sheep fleeced in
steel, but sheep nonetheless.
Climbing a jumble of stone, Theon looked down on the dead men and dying horses. The horses had
deserved better. Tymor and his brothers had gathered up what mounts had come through the fight unhurt,
while Urzen and Black Lorren silenced the animals too badly wounded to be saved. The rest of his men
were looting the corpses. Gevin Harlaw knelt on a dead man's chest, sawing off his finger to get at a ring.
Paying the iron price. My lord father would approve. Theon thought of seeking out the bodies of the two
men he'd slain himself to see if they had any jewelry worth the taking, but the notion left a bitter taste in
his mouth. He could imagine what Eddard Stark would have said. Yet that thought made him angry too.
Stark is dead and rotting, and naught to me, he reminded himself.
Old Botley, who was called Fishwhiskers, sat scowling by his pile of plunder while his three sons added
to it. One of them was in a shoving match with a fat man named Todric, who was reeling among the slain
with a horn of ale in one hand and an axe in the other, clad in a cloak of white foxfur only slightly stained
by the blood of its previous owner.
Drunk, Theon decided, watching him bellow. It was said that the ironmen of old had oft been
blood-drunk in battle, so berserk that they felt no pain and feared no foe, but this was a common
ale-drunk.
"Wex, my bow and quiver." The boy ran and fetched them. Theon bent the bow and slipped the string
into its notches as Todric knocked down the Botley boy and flung ale into his eyes. Fishwhiskers leapt up
cursing, but Theon was quicker. He drew on the hand that clutched the drinking horn, figuring to give
them a shot to talk about, but Todric spoiled it by lurching to one side just as he loosed. The arrow took
him through the belly.


The looters stopped to gape. Theon lowered his bow. "No drunkards, I said, and no squabbles over
plunder." On his knees, Todric was dying noisily. "Botley, silence him." Fishwhiskers and his sons were
quick to obey. They slit Todric's throat as he kicked feebly, and were stripping him of cloak and rings
and weapons before he was even dead.
Now they know I mean what I say. Lord Balon might have given him the command, but Theon knew
that some of his men saw only a soft boy from the green lands when they looked at him. "Anyone else
have a thirst?" No one replied. "Good." He kicked at Benfred's fallen banner, clutched in the dead hand
of the squire who'd borne it. A rabbitskin had been tied below the flag. Why rabbitskins? he had meant
to ask, but being spat on had made him forget his questions. He tossed his bow back to Wex and strode
off, remembering how elated he'd felt after the Whispering Wood, and wondering why this did not taste
as sweet. Tallhart, you bloody overproud fool, you never even sent out a scout.
They'd been joking and even singing as they'd come on, the three trees of Tallhart streaming above them
while rabbitskins flapped stupidly from the points of their lances. The archers concealed behind the gorse
had spoiled the song with a rain of arrows, and Theon himself had led his men-at-arms out to finish the
butcher's work with dagger, axe, and warhammer. He had ordered their leader spared for questioning.
Only he had not expected it to be Benfred Tallhart.
His limp body was being dragged from the surf when Theon returned to his Sea Bitch. The masts of his
longships stood outlined against the sky along the pebbled beach. Of the fishing village, nothing remained
but cold ashes that stank when it rained. The men had been put to the sword, all but a handful that Theon
had allowed to flee to bring the word to Torrhen's Square. Their wives and daughters had been claimed
for salt wives, those who were young enough and fair. The crones and the ugly ones had simply been
raped and killed, or taken for thralls if they had useful skills and did not seem likely to cause trouble.
Theon had planned that attack as well, bringing his ships up to the shore in the chill darkness before the
dawn and leaping from the prow
with a longaxe in his hand to lead his men into the sleeping village. He did not like the taste of any of this,
but what choice did he have?
His thrice-damned sister was sailing her Black Wind north even now, sure to win a castle of her own.
Lord Balon had let no word of the hosting escape the Iron Islands, and Theon's bloody work along the
Stony Shore would be put down to sea raiders out for plunder. The northmen would not realize their true
peril, not until the hammers fell on Deepwood Motte and Moat Cailin. And after all is done and won,
they will make songs for that bitch Asha, and forget that I was even here. That is, if he allowed it.
Dagmer Cleftjaw stood by the high carved prow of his longship, Foamdrinker. Theon had assigned him
the task of guarding the ships; otherwise men would have called it Dagmer's victory, not his. A more
prickly man might have taken that for a slight, but the Cleftjaw had only laughed.
"The day is won," Dagmer called down. "And yet you do not smile, boy. The living should smile, for the
dead cannot." He smiled himself to show how it was done. it made for a hideous sight. Under a snowy
white mane of hair, Dagmer Cleftjaw had the most gut-churning scar Theon had ever seen, the legacy of
the longaxe that had near killed him as a boy. The blow had splintered his jaw, shattered his front teeth,
and left him four lips where other men had but two. A shaggy beard covered his cheeks and neck, but
the hair would not grow over the scar, so a shiny seam of puckered, twisted flesh divided his face like a
crevasse through a snowfield. "We could hear them singing," the old warrior said. "It was a good song,


and they sang it bravely."
"They sang better than they fought. Harps would have done them as much good as their lances did."
"How many men are lost?"
"Of ours?" Theon shrugged. "Todric. I killed him for getting drunk and fighting over loot."
"Some men are born to be killed." A lesser man might have been afraid to show a smile as frightening as
his, yet Dagmer grinned more often and more broadly than Lord Balon ever had.
Ugly as it was, that smile brought back a hundred memories. Theon had seen it often as a boy, when
he'd jumped a horse over a mossy wall, or flung an axe and split a target square. He'd seen it when he
blocked a blow from Dagmer's sword, when he put an arrow through a seagull on the wing, when he
took the tiller in hand and guided a longship safely through a snarl of foaming rocks. He gave me more
smiles than my father and Eddard Stark together. Even Robb . . . he ought to have won a smile the day
he'd saved Bran from that wildling, but instead he'd gotten a scolding, as if he were some cook who'd
burned the stew.
"You and I must talk, Uncle," Theon said. Dagmer was no true uncle, only a sworn man with perhaps a
pinch of Greyjoy blood four or five lives back, and that from the wrong side of the blanket. Yet Theon
had always called him uncle nonetheless.
"Come onto my deck, then." There were no mlords from Dagmer, not when he stood on his own deck.
On the Iron Islands, every captain was a king aboard his own ship.
He climbed the plank to the deck of the Foamdrinker in four long strides, and Dagmer led him back to
the cramped aft cabin, where the old man poured a horn of sour ale and offered Theon the same. He
declined. "We did not capture enough horses. A few, but . . . well, I'll make do with what I have, I
suppose. Fewer men means more glory."
"What need do we have of horses?" Like most ironmen, Dagmer preferred to fight on foot or from the
deck of a ship. "Horses will only shit on our decks and get in our way."
"If we sailed, yes," Theon admitted. "I have another plan." He watched the other carefully to see how he
would take that. Without the Cleftjaw he could not hope to succeed. Command or no, the men would
never follow him if both Aeron and Dagmer opposed him, and he had no hope of winning over the
sour-faced priest.
"Your lord father commanded us to harry the coast, no more." Eyes pale as sea foam watched Theon
from under those shaggy white eyebrows. Was it disapproval he saw there, or a spark of interest? The
latter, he thought . . . hoped . . .
"You are my father's man."
"His best man, and always have been."
Pride, Theon thought. He is proud, I must use that, his pride will be the key. "There is no man in the Iron
Islands half so skilled with spear or sword."
"You have been too long away, boy. When you left, it was as you say, but I am grown old in Lord


Greyjoy's service. The singers call Andrik best now. Andrik the Unsmiling, they name him. A giant of a
man. He serves Lord Drumm of Old Wyk. And Black Lorren and Qarl the Maid are near as dread."
"This Andrik may be a great fighter, but men do not fear him as they fear you."
"Aye, that's so," Dagmer said. The fingers curled around the drinking horn were heavy with rings, gold
and silver and bronze, set with chunks of sapphire and garnet and dragonglass. He had paid the iron
price for every one, Theon knew.
"If I had a man like you in my service, I should not waste him on this child's business of harrying and
burning. This is no work for Lord Balon's best man
Dagmer's grin twisted his lips apart and showed the brown splinters of his teeth. "Nor for his trueborn
son?" He hooted. "I know you too well, Theon. I saw you take your first step, helped you bend your first
bow. 'Tis not me who feels wasted."
"By rights I should have my sister's command," he admitted, uncomfortably aware of how peevish that
sounded.
"You take this business too hard, boy. It is only that your lord father does not know you. With your
brothers dead and you taken by the wolves, your sister was his solace. He learned to rely on her, and
she has never failed him."
"Nor have I. The Starks knew my worth. I was one of Brynden Blackfish's picked scouts, and I charged
with the first wave in the Whispering Wood. I was that close to crossing swords with the Kingslayer
himself." Theon held his hands two feet apart. "Daryn Hornwood came between us, and died for it."
"Why do you tell me this?" Dagmer asked. "It was me who put your first sword in your hand. I know
you are no craven."
"Does my father?"
The hoary old warrior looked as if he had bitten into something he did not like the taste of. "It is only . . .
Theon, the Boy Wolf is your friend, and these Starks had you for ten years."
"I am no Stark." Lord Eddard saw to that. "I am a Greyjoy, and I mean to be my father's heir. How can
I do that unless I prove myself with some great deed? "
"You are young. Other wars will come, and you shall do your great deeds. For now, we are
commanded to harry the Stony Shore."
"Let my uncle Aeron see to it. I'll give him six ships, all but Foamdrinker and Sea Bitch, and he can burn
and drown to his god's surfeit."
"The command was given you, not Aeron Damphair."
"So long as the harrying is done, what does it matter? No priest could do what I mean to, nor what I ask
of you. I have a task that only Dagmer Cleftjaw can accomplish."
Dagmer took a long draught from his horn. "Tell me."


He is tempted, Theon thought. He likes this reaver's work no better than I do. "If my sister can take a
castle, so can P'
"Asha has four or five times the men we do."
Theon allowed himself a sly smile. "But we have four times the wits, and five times the courage."
"Your father-"
"-will thank me, when I hand him his kingdom. I mean to do a deed that the harpers will sing of for a
thousand years."
He knew that would give Dagmer pause. A singer had made a song about the axe that cracked his jaw
in half, and the old man loved to hear
it. Whenever he was in his cups he would call for a reaving song, something loud and stormy that told of
dead heroes and deeds of wild valor. His hair is white and his teeth are rotten, but he still has a taste for
glory.
"What would my part be in this scheme of yours, boy?" Dagmer Cleftjaw asked after a long silence, and
Theon knew he had won.
"To strike terror into the heart of the foe, as only one of your name could do. You'll take the great part
of our force and march on Torrhen's Square. Helman Tallhart took his best men south, and Benfred died
here with their sons. His uncle Leobald will remain, with some small garrison." If I had been able to
question Benfred, I would know just how small. "Make no secret of your approach. Sing all the brave
songs you like. I want them to close their gates."
"Is this Torrhen's Square a strong keep?"
"Strong enough. The walls are stone, thirty feet high, with square towers at each corner and a square
keep within."
"Stone walls cannot be fired. How are we to take them? We do not have the numbers to storm even a
small castle."
"You will make camp outside their walls and set to building catapults and siege engines."
"That is not the Old Way. Have you forgotten? Ironmen fight with swords and axes, not by flinging
rocks. There is no glory in starving out a foeman."
"Leobald will not know that. When he sees you raising siege towers, his old woman's blood will run
cold, and he will bleat for help. Stay your archers, Uncle, and let the raven fly. The castellan at Winterfell
is a brave man, but age has stiffened his wits as well as his limbs. When he learns that one of his king's
bannermen is under attack by the fearsome Dagmer Cleftjaw, he will summon his strength and ride to
Tallhart's aid. It is his duty. Ser Rodrik is nothing if not dutiful."
"Any force he summons will be larger than mine," Dagmer said, "and these old knights are more cunning
than you think, or they would never have lived to see their first grey hair. You set us a battle we cannot
hope to win, Theon. This Torrhen's Square will never fall."


Theon smiled. "It's not Torrhen's Square I mean to take."
CHAPTER 38
ARYA
Confusion and clangor ruled the castle. Men stood on the beds of wagons loading casks of wine, sacks
of flour, and bundles of new-fletched arrows. Smiths straightened swords, knocked dents from
breastplates, and shoed destriers and pack mules alike. Mail shirts were tossed in barrels of sand and
rolled across the lumpy surface of the Flowstone Yard to scour them clean. Weese's women had twenty
cloaks to mend, a hundred more to wash. The high and humble crowded into the sept together to pray.
Outside the walls, tents and pavilions were coming down. Squires tossed pails of water over cookfires,
while soldiers took out their oilstones to give their blades one last good lick. The noise was a swelling
tide: horses blowing and whickering, lords shouting commands, men-at-arms trading curses, camp
followers squabbling.
Lord Tywin Lannister was marching at last.
Ser Addam Marbrand was the first of the captains to depart, a day before the rest. He made a gallant
show of it, riding a spirited red courser whose mane was the same copper color as the long hair that
streamed past Ser Addam's shoulders. The horse was barded in bronze-colored trappings dyed to match
the rider's cloak and emblazoned with the burning tree. Some of the castle women sobbed to see him go.
Weese said he was a great horseman and sword fighter, Lord Tywin's most daring commander.
I hope he dies, Arya thought as she watched him ride out the gate, his
men streaming after him in a double column. I hope they all die. They were going to fight Robb, she
knew. Listening to the talk as she went about her work, Arya had learned that Robb had won some great
victory in the west. He'd burned Lannisport, some said, or else he meant to burn it. He'd captured
Casterly Rock and put everyone to the sword, or he was besieging the Golden Tooth . . . but something
had happened, that much was certain.
Weese had her running messages from dawn to dusk. Some of them even took her beyond the castle
walls, out into the mud and madness of the camp. I could flee, she thought as a wagon rumbled past her.
I could hop on the back of a wagon and hide, or fall in with the camp followers, no one would stop me.
She might have done it if not for Weese. He'd told them more than once what he'd do to anyone who
tried to run off on him. "It won't be no beating, oh, no. I won't lay a finger on you. I'll just save you for the
Qohorik, yes I will, I'll save you for the Crippler. Vargo Hoat his name is, and when he gets back he'll
cut off your feet." Maybe if Weese were dead, Arya thought . . . but not when she was with him. He
could look at you and smell what you were thinking, he always said so.
Weese never imagined she could read, though, so he never bothered to seal the messages he gave her.
Arya peeked at them all, but they were never anything good, just stupid stuff sending this cart to the
granary and that one to the armory. One was a demand for payment on a gambling debt, but the knight
she gave it to couldn't read. When she told him what it said he tried to hit her, but Arya ducked under the
blow, snatched a silver-banded drinking horn off his saddle, and darted away. The knight roared and
came after her, but she slid between two wayns, wove through a crowd of archers, and jumped a latrine


trench. In his mail he couldn't keep up. When she gave the horn to Weese, he told her that a smart little
Weasel like her deserved a reward. "I've got my eye on a plump crisp capon to sup on tonight. We'll
share it, me and you. You'll like that."
Everywhere she went, Arya searched for Jaqen H'ghar, wanting to whisper another name to him before
those she hated were all gone out of her reach, but amidst the chaos and confusion the Lorathi sellsword
was not to be found. He still owed her two deaths, and she was worried she would never get them if he
rode off to battle with the rest. Finally she worked up the courage to ask one of the gate guards if he'd
gone. "One of Lorch's men, is he?" the man said. "He won't be going, then. His lordship's named Ser
Amory castellan of Harrenhal. That whole lot's staying right here, to hold the castle. The Bloody
Mummers will be left as well, to do the foraging. That goat Vargo Hoat is like to spit, him and Lorch
have always hated each other."
The Mountain would be leaving with Lord Tywin, though. He would command the van in battle, which
meant that Dunsen, Polliver, and Raff would all slip between her fingers unless she could find Jaqen and
have him kill one of them before they left.
"Weasel," Weese said that afternoon. "Get to the armory and tell Lucan that Ser Lyonel notched his
sword in practice and needs a new one. Here's his mark." He handed her a square of paper. "Be quick
about it now, he's to ride with Ser Kevan Lannister."
Arya took the paper and ran. The armory adjoined the castle smithy, a long high-roofed tunnel of a
building with twenty forges built into its walls and long stone water troughs for tempering the steel. Half of
the forges were at work when she entered. The walls rang with the sound of hammers, and burly men in
leather aprons stood sweating in the sullen heat as they bent over bellows and anvils. When she spied
Gendry, his bare chest was slick with sweat, but the blue eyes under the heavy black hair had the
stubborn look she remembered. Arya didn't know that she even wanted to talk to him. It was his fault
they'd all been caught. "Which one is Lucan?" She thrust out the paper. "I'm to get a new sword for Ser
Lyonel."
"Never mind about Ser Lyonel." He drew her aside by the arm. "Last night Hot Pie asked me if I heard
you yell Winterfell back at the holdfast, when we were all fighting on the wall."
"I never did!"
"Yes you did. I heard you too."
"Everyone was yelling stuff," Arya said defensively. "Hot Pie yelled hot pie. He must have yelled it a
hundred times."
"It's what you yelled that matters. I told Hot Pie he should clean the wax out of his ears, that all you
yelled was Go to hell! If he asks you, you better say the same."
"I will," she said, even though she thought go to hell was a stupid thing to yell. She didn't dare tell Hot Pie
who she really was. Maybe I should say Hot Pie's name to laqen.
"I'll get Lucan," Gendry said.
Lucan grunted at the writing (though Arya did not think he could read it), and pulled down a heavy
longsword. "This is too good for that oaf, and you tell him I said so," he said as he gave her the blade.


"I will," she lied. If she did any such thing, Weese would beat her bloody. Lucan could deliver his own
insults.
The longsword was a lot heavier than Needle had been, but Arya liked the feel of it. The weight of steel
in her hands made her feel stronger. Maybe I'm not a water dancer yet, but I'm not a mouse either. A
mouse couldn't use a sword but I can. The gates were open, soldiers coming and going, drays rolling in
empty and going out creaking and swaying under
their loads. She thought about going to the stables and telling them that Ser Lyonel wanted a new horse.
She had the paper, the stableboys wouldn't be able to read it any better than Lucan had. I could take the
horse and the sword and just ride out. If the guards tried to stop me I'd show them the paper and say I
was bringing everything to Ser Lyonel. She had no notion what Ser Lyonel looked like or where to find
him, though. If they questioned her, they'd know, and then Weese . . . Weese . . .
As she chewed her lip, trying not to think about how it would feel to have her feet cut off, a group of
archers in leather jerkins and iron helms went past, their bows slung across their shoulders. Arya heard
snatches of their talk.
giants I tell you, he's got giants twenty foot tall come down from beyond the Wall, follow him like dogs .
. .
". . . not natural, coming on them so fast, in the night and all. He's more wolf than man, all them Starks
are
shit on your wolves and giants, the boy'd piss his pants if he knew we was coming. He wasn't man
enough to march on Harrenhal, was he? Ran Vother way, didn't he? He'd run now if he knew what was
best for him."
"So you say, but might be the boy knows something we don't, maybe it's us ought to be run . . ."
Yes, Arya thought. Yes, it's you who ought to run, you and Lord 7~,win and the Mountain and Ser
Addam and Ser Amory and stupid Ser Lyonel whoever he is, all of you better run or my brother will kill
you, he's a Stark, he's more wolf than man, and so am L
"Weasel." Weese's voice cracked like a whip. She never saw where he came from, but suddenly he was
right in front of her. "Give me that. Took you long enough." He snatched the sword from her fingers, and
dealt her a stinging slap with the back of his hand. "Next time be quicker about it."
For a moment she had been a wolf again, but Weese's slap took it all away and left her with nothing but
the taste of her own blood in her mouth. She'd bitten her tongue when he hit her. She hated him for that.
"You want another?" Weese demanded. "You'll get it too. I'll have none of your insolent looks. Get
down to the brewhouse and tell Tuffleberry that I have two dozen barrels for him, but he better send his
lads to fetch them or I'll find someone wants 'em worse." Arya started off, but not quick enough for
Weese. "You run if you want to eat tonight," he shouted, his promises of a plump crisp capon already
forgotten. "And don't be getting lost again, or I swear I'll beat you bloody."
You won't, Arya thought. You won't ever again. But she ran. The old gods of the north must have been
guiding her steps. Halfway to the
brewhouse, as she passing under the stone bridge that arched between Widow's Tower and Kingspyre,


she heard harsh, growling laughter. Rorge came around a corner with three other men, the manticore
badge of Ser Amory sewn over their hearts. When he saw her, he stopped and grinned, showing a
mouthful of crooked brown teeth under the leather flap he wore sometimes to cover the hole in his face.
"Yoren's little cunt," he called her. "Guess we know why that black bastard wanted you on the Wall,
don't we?" He laughed again, and the others laughed with him. "Where's your stick now?" Rorge
demanded suddenly, the smile gone as quick as it had come. "Seems to me I promised to fuck you with
it." He took a step toward her. Arya edged backward. "Not so brave now that I'm not in chains, are
you?"
"I saved you." She kept a good yard between them, ready to run quick as a snake if he made a grab for
her.
"Owe you another fucking for that, seems like. Did Yoren pump your cunny, or did he like that tight little
ass better?"
"I'm looking for Jaqen," she said. "There's a message."
Rorge halted. Something in his eyes . . . could it be that he was scared of Jaqen H'ghar? "The bathhouse.
Get out of my way."
Arya whirled and ran, swift as a deer, her feet flying over the cobbles all the way to the bathhouse, She
found Jaqen soaking in a tub, steam rising around him as a serving girl sluiced hot water over his head.
His long hair, red on one side and white on the other, fell down across his shoulders, wet and heavy.
She crept up quiet as a shadow, but he opened his eyes all the same. "She steals in on little mice feet, but
a man hears," he said. How could he hear me? she wondered, and it seemed as if he heard that as well.
"The scuff of leather on stone sings loud as warhorns to a man with open ears. Clever girls go barefoot."
"I have a message." Arya eyed the serving girl uncertainly. When she did not seem likely to go away, she
leaned in until her mouth was almost touching his ear. "Weese," she whispered.
Jaqen H'ghar closed his eyes again, floating languid, half -asleep. "Tell his lordship a man shall attend him
at his leisure." His hand moved suddenly, splashing hot water at her, and Arya had to leap back to keep
from getting drenched.
When she told Tuffleberry what Weese had said, the brewer cursed loudly. "You tell Weese my lads got
duties to attend to, and you tell him he's a pox-ridden bastard too, and the seven hells will freeze over
before he gets another horn of my ale. I'll have them barrels within the hour or Lord Tywin will hear of it,
see if he don't."
Weese cursed too when Arya brought back that message, even though she left out the pox-ridden
bastard part. He fumed and threatened, but in
the end he rounded up six men and sent them off grumbling to fetch the barrels down to the brewhouse.
Supper that evening was a thin stew of barley, onion, and carrots, with a wedge of stale brown bread.
One of the women had taken to sleeping in Weese's bed, and she got a piece of ripe blue cheese as well,
and a wing off the capon that Weese had spoken of that morning. He ate the rest himself, the grease
running down in a shiny line through the boils that festered at the corner of his mouth. The bird was
almost gone when he glanced up from his trencher and saw Arya staring. "Weasel, come here."


A few mouthfuls of dark meat still clung to one thigh. He forgot, but now he's remembered, Arya
thought. it made her feel bad for telling Jaqen to kill him. She got off the bench and went to the head of
the table.
"I saw you looking at me." Weese wiped his fingers on the front of her shift. Then he grabbed her throat
with one hand and slapped her with the other. "What did I tell you?" He slapped her again, backhand.
"Keep those eyes to yourself, or next time I'll spoon one out and feed it to my bitch." A shove sent her
stumbling to the floor. Her hem caught on a loose nail in the splintered wooden bench and ripped as she
fell. "You'll mend that before you sleep," Weese announced as he pulled the last bit of meat off the
capon. When he was finished he sucked his fingers noisily, and threw the bones to his ugly spotted dog.
"Weese," Arya whispered that night as she bent over the tear in her shift. "Dunsen, Polliver, Raff the
Sweetling," she said, calling a name every time she pushed the bone needle through the undyed wool.
"The Tickler and the Hound. Ser Gregor, Ser Amory, Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, King Joffrey, Queen Cersei."
She wondered how much longer she would have to include Weese in her prayer, and drifted off to sleep
dreaming that on the morrow, when she woke, he'd be dead.
But it was the sharp toe of Weese's boot that woke her, as ever. The main strength of Lord Tywin's host
would ride this day, he told them as they broke their fast on oatcakes. "Don't none of you be thinking
how easy it'll be here once m'lord of Lannister is gone," he warned. "The castle won't grow no smaller, I
promise you that, only now there'll be fewer hands to tend to it. You lot of slugabeds are going to learn
what work is now, yes you are."
Not from you. Arya picked at her oaten cake. Weese frowned at her, as if he smelled her secret.
Quickly she dropped her gaze to her food, and dared not raise her eyes again.
Pale light filled the yard when Lord Tywin Lannister took his leave of Harrenhal. Arya watched from an
arched window halfway up the Wailing Tower. His charger wore a blanket of enameled crimson scales
and gilded crinet and charnfron, while Lord Tywin himself sported a thick ermine cloak. His brother Ser
Kevan looked near as splendid. No less than four
standard-bearers went before them, carrying huge crimson banners emblazoned with the golden lion.
Behind the Lannisters came their great lords and captains. Their banners flared and flapped, a pageant of
color: red ox and golden mountain, purple unicorn and bantam rooster, brindled boar and badger, a silver
ferret and a juggler in motley, stars and sunbursts, peacock and panther, chevron and dagger, black hood
and blue beetle and green arrow.
Last of all came Ser Gregor Clegane in his grey plate steel, astride a stallion as bad-tempered as his
rider. Polliver rode beside him, with the black dog standard in his hand and Gendry's horned helm on his
head. He was a tall man, but he looked no more than a half-grown boy when he rode in his master's
shadow.
A shiver crept up Arya's spine as she watched them pass under the great iron portcullis of Harrenhal.
Suddenly she knew that she had made a terrible mistake. I'm so stupid, she thought. Weese did not
matter, no more than Chiswyck had. These were the men who mattered, the ones she ought to have
killed. Last night she could have whispered any of them dead, if only she hadn't been so mad at Weese
for hitting her and lying about the capon. Lord Tywin, why didn't I say Lord Tywin?
Perhaps it was not too late to change her mind. Weese was not killed yet. If she could find Jaqen, tell
him . . .


Hurriedly, Arya ran down the twisting steps, her chores forgotten. She heard the rattle of chains as the
portcullis was slowly lowered, its spikes sinking deep into the ground . . . and then another sound, a
shriek of pain and fear.
A dozen people got there before her, though none was coming any too close. Arya squirmed between
them. Weese was sprawled across the cobbles, his throat a red ruin, eyes gaping sightlessly up at a bank
of grey cloud. His ugly spotted dog stood on his chest, lapping at the blood pulsing from his neck, and
every so often ripping a mouthful of flesh out of the dead man's face.
Finally someone brought a crossbow and shot the spotted dog dead while she was worrying at one of
Weese's ears.
"Damnedest thing," she heard a man say. "He had that bitch dog since she was a pup."
"This place is cursed," the man with the crossbow said.
"It's Harren's ghost, that's what it is," said Goodwife Amabel. "I'll not sleep here another night, I swear
it."
Arya lifted her gaze from the dead man and his dead dog. Jaqen H'ghar was leaning up against the side
of the Wailing Tower. When he saw her looking, he lifted a hand to his face and laid two fingers casually
against his cheek.
CHAPTER 39
CATELYN
Two days ride from Riverrun, a scout spied them watering their horses beside a muddy steam. Catelyn
had never been so glad to see the twin tower badge of House Frey.
When she asked him to lead them to her uncle, he said, "The Blackfish is gone west with the king, my
lady. Martyn Rivers commands the outriders in his stead."
"I see." She had met Rivers at the Twins; a baseborn son of Lord Walder Frey, half brother to Ser
Perwyn. It did not surprise her to learn that Robb had struck at the heart of Lannister power; clearly he
had been contemplating just that when he sent her away to treat with Renly. "Where is Rivers now?"
"His camp is two hours ride, my lady."
"Take us to him," she commanded. Brienne helped her back into her saddle, and they set out at once.
"Have you come from Bitterbridge, my lady?" the scout asked.
"No." She had not dared. With Renly dead, Catelyn had been uncertain of the reception she might
receive from his young widow and her protectors. Instead she had ridden through the heart of the war,
through fertile riverlands turned to blackened desert by the fury of the Lannisters, and each night her
scouts brought back tales that made her ill. "Lord Renly is slain," she added.


"We'd hoped that tale was some Lannister lie, or-"
"Would that it were. My brother commands in Riverrun?"
"Yes, my lady. His Grace left Ser Edmure to hold Riverrun and guard his rear."
Gods grant him the strength to do so, Catelyn thought. And the wisdom as well. "Is there word from
Robb in the west?"
"You have not heard?" The man seemed surprised. "His Grace won a great victory at Oxcross. Ser
Stafford Lannister is dead, his host scattered."
Ser Wendel Manderly gave a whoop of pleasure, but Catelyn only nodded. Tomorrow's trials
concerned her more than yesterday's triumphs.
Martyn Rivers had made his camp in the shell of a shattered holdfast, beside a roofless stable and a
hundred fresh graves. He went to one knee when Catelyn dismounted. "Well met, my lady. Your brother
charged us to keep an eye out for your party, and escort you back to Riverrun in all haste should we
come upon you."
Catelyn scarce liked the sound of that. "Is it my father?"
"No, my lady. Lord Hoster is unchanged." Rivers was a ruddy man with scant resemblance to his half
brothers. "It is only that we feared you might chance upon Lannister scouts. Lord Tywin has left
Harrenhal and marches west with all his power."
"Rise," she told Rivers, frowning. Stannis Baratheon would soon be on the march as well, gods help
them all. "How long until Lord Tywin is upon us?"
"Three days, perhaps four, it is hard to know. We have eyes out along all the roads, but it would be best
not to linger."
Nor did they. Rivers broke his camp quickly and saddled up beside her, and they set off again, near fifty
strong now, flying beneath the direwolf, the leaping trout, the twin towers.
Her men wanted to hear more of Robb's victory at Oxcross, and Rivers obliged. "There's a singer come
to Riverrun, calls himself Rymund the Rhymer, he's made a song of the fight. Doubtless you'll hear it sung
tonight, my lady. 'Wolf in the Night' this Rymund calls it." He went on to tell how the remnants of Ser
Stafford's host had fallen back on Lannisport. Without siege engines there was no way to storm Casterly
Rock, so the Young Wolf was paying the Lannisters back in kind for the devastation they'd inflicted on
the riverlands. Lords Karstark and Glover were raiding along the coast, Lady Mormont had captured
thousands of cattle and was driving them back toward Riverrun, while the Greatjon had seized the gold
mines at Castamere, Nunn's Deep, and the Pendric Hills. Ser Wendel laughed. "Nothing's more like to
bring a Lannister running than a threat to his gold."
"How did the king ever take the Tooth?" Ser Perwyn Frey asked his
bastard brother. "That's a hard strong keep, and it commands the hill road. "
"He never took it. He slipped around it in the night. It's said the direwolf showed him the way, that Grey


Wind of his. The beast sniffed out a goat track that wound down a defile and up along beneath a ridge, a
crooked and stony way, yet wide enough for men riding single file. The Lannisters in their watchtowers
got not so much a glimpse of them." Rivers lowered his voice. "There's some say that after the battle, the
king cut out Stafford Lannister's heart and fed it to the wolf."
"I would not believe such tales," Catelyn said sharply. "My son is no savage."
"As you say, my lady. Still, it's no more than the beast deserved. That is no common wolf, that one. The
Greatjon's been heard to say that the old gods of the north sent those direwolves to your children."
Catelyn remembered the day when her boys had found the pups in the late summer snows. There had
been five, three male and two female for the five trueborn children of House Stark . . . and a sixth, white
of fur and red of eye, for Ned's bastard son Jon Snow. No common wolves, she thought. No indeed.
That night as they made their camp, Brienne sought out her tent. "My lady, you are safely back among
your own now, a day's ride from your brother's castle. Give me leave to go."
Catelyn should not have been surprised. The homely young woman had kept to herself all through their
journey, spending most of her time with the horses, brushing out their coats and pulling stones from their
shoes. She had helped Shadd cook and clean game as well, and soon proved that she could hunt as well
as any. Any task Catelyn asked her to turn her hand to, Brienne had performed deftly and without
complaint, and when she was spoken to she answered politely, but she never chattered, nor wept, nor
laughed. She had ridden with them every day and slept among them every night without ever truly
becoming one of them.
It was the same when she was with Renly, Catelyn thought. At the feast, in the melee, even in Renly's
pavilion with her brothers of the Rainbow Guard. There are walls around this one higher than Winterfell's.
"If you left us, where would you go?" Catelyn asked her.
"Back," Brienne said. "To Storm's End."
"Alone." It was not a question.
The broad face was a pool of still water, giving no hint of what might live in the depths below. "Yes."
"You mean to kill Stannis."
Brienne closed her thick callused fingers around the hilt of her sword.
The sword that had been his. "I swore a vow. Three times I swore. You heard me."
"I did," Catelyn admitted. The girl had kept the rainbow cloak when she discarded the rest of her
bloodstained clothing, she knew. Brienne's own things had been left behind during their flight, and she had
been forced to clothe herself in odd bits of Ser Wendel's spare garb, since no one else in their party had
garments large enough to fit her. "Vows should be kept, I agree, but Stannis has a great host around him,
and his own guards sworn to keep him safe."
"I am not afraid of his guards. I am as good as any of them. I should never have fled."
"Is that what troubles you, that some fool might call you craven?" She sighed. "Renly's death was no fault


of youts. You served him valiantly, but when you seek to follow him into the earth, you serve no one."
She stretched out a hand, to give what comfort a touch could give. "I know how hard it is-"
Brienne shook off her hand. "No one knows."
"You're wrong," Catelyn said sharply. "Every morning, when I wake, I remember that Ned is gone. I
have no skill with swords, but that does not mean that I do not dream of riding to King's Landing and
wrapping my hands around Cersei Lannister's white throat and squeezing until her face turns black."
The Beauty raised her eyes, the only part of her that was truly beautiful. "If you dream that, why would
you seek to hold me back? Is it because of what Stannis said at the parley?"
Was it? Catelyn glanced across the camp. Two men were walking sentry, spears in hand. "I was taught
that good men must fight evil in this world, and Renly's death was evil beyond all doubt. Yet I was also
taught that the gods make kings, not the swords of men. if Stannis is our rightful king-"
"He's not. Robert was never the rightful king either, even Renly said as much. Jaime Lannister murdered
the rightful king, after Robert killed his lawful heir on the Trident. Where were the gods then? The gods
don't care about men, no more than kings care about peasants."
"A good king does care."
"Lord Renly . . . His Grace, he . . . he would have been the best king, my lady, he was so good, he . . ."
"He is gone, Brienne," she said, as gently as she could. "Stannis and Joffrey remain . . . and so does my
son."
"He wouldn't . . . you'd never make a peace with Stannis, would you? Bend the knee? You wouldn't . .
."
"I will tell you true, Brienne. I do not know. My son may be a king,
but I am no queen ... only a mother who would keep her children safe, however she could."
"I am not made to be a mother. I need to fight."
"Then fight . . . but for the living, not the dead. Renly's enemies are Robb's enemies as well."
Brienne stared at the ground and shuffled her feet. "I do not know your son, my lady." She looked up. "I
could serve you. If you would have me."
Catelyn was startled. "Why me?"
The question seemed to trouble Brienne. "You helped me. In the pavilion . . . when they thought that I
had . . . thati had . . .
"You were innocent."
"Even so, you did not have to do that. You could have let them kill me. I was nothing to you."
Perhaps I did not want to be the only one who knew the dark truth of what had happened there, Catelyn


thought. "Brienne, I have taken many wellborn ladies into my service over the years, but never one like
you. I am no battle commander."
"No, but you have courage. Not battle courage perhaps but . . . I don't know . . . a kind of woman's
courage. And I think, when the time comes, you will not try and hold me back. Promise me that. That
you will not hold me back from Stannis."
Catelyn could still hear Stannis saying that Robb's turn too would come in time. It was like a cold breath
on the back of her neck. "When the time comes, I will not hold you back."
The tall girl knelt awkwardly, unsheathed Renly's longsword, and laid it at her feet. "Then I am yours, my
lady. Your liege man, or . . . whatever you would have me be. I will shield your back and keep your
counsel and give my life for yours, if need be. I swear it by the old gods and the new."
"And I vow that you shall always have a place by my hearth and meat and mead at my table, and pledge
to ask no service of you that might bring you into dishonor. I swear it by the old gods and the new.
Arise." As she clasped the other woman's hands between her own, Catelyn could not help but smile.
How many times did I watch Ned accept a man's oath of service~ She wondered what he would think if
he could see her now.
They forded the Red Fork late the next day, upstream of Riverrun where the river made a wide loop and
the waters grew muddy and shallow. The crossing was guarded by a mixed force of archers and pikemen
wearing the eagle badge of the Mallisters. When they saw Catelyn's banners, they emerged from behind
their sharpened stakes and sent a man over from the far bank to lead her party across. "Slow and careful
like, milady," he warned as he took the bridle of her horse. "We've planted
iron spikes under the water, y'see, and there's caltrops scattered among them rocks there. It's the same
on all the fords, by your brother's command."
Edmure thinks to fight here. The realization gave her a queasy feeling in the bowels, but she held her
tongue.
Between the Red Fork and the Tumblestone, they joined a stream of smallfolk making for the safety of
Riverrun. Some were driving animals before them, others pulling wayns, but they made way as Catelyn
rode past, and cheered her with cries of "Tully!" or "Stark!" Half a mile from the castle, she passed
through a large encampment where the scarlet banner of the Blackwoods waved above the lord's tent.
Lucas took his leave of her there, to seek out his father, Lord Tytos. The rest rode on.
Catelyn spied a second camp strung out along the bank north of the Tumblestone, familiar standards
flapping in the wind-Marq Piper's dancing maiden, Darry's plowman, the twining red-and-white snakes
of the Paeges. They were all her father's bannermen, lords of the Trident. Most had left Riverrun before
she had, to defend their own lands. If they were here again, it could only mean that Edmure had called
them back. Gods save us, it's true, he means to offer battle to Lord Tywin.
Something dark was dangling against the walls of Riverrun, Catelyn saw from a distance. When she rode
close, she saw dead men hanging from the battlements, slumped at the ends of long ropes with hempen
nooses tight around their necks, their faces swollen and black. The crows had been at them, but their
crimson cloaks still showed bright against the sandstone walls.
"They have hanged some Lannisters," Hal Mollen observed.


"A pretty sight," Ser Wendel Manderly said cheerfully.
"Our friends have begun without us," Perwyn Frey jested. The others laughed, all but Brienne, who
gazed up at the row of bodies unblinking, and neither spoke nor smiled.
If they have slain the Kingslayer, then my daughters are dead as well. Catelyn spurred her horse to a
canter. Hal Mollen and Robin Flint raced past at a gallop, halooing to the gatehouse. The guards on the
walls had doubtless spied her banners some time ago, for the portcullis was up as they approached.
Edmure rode out from the castle to meet her, surrounded by three of her father's sworn
men-great-bellied Ser Desmond Grell the master-atarms, Utherydes Wayn the steward, and Ser Robin
Ryger, Riverrun's big bald captain of guards. They were all three of an age with Lord Hoster, men who
had spent their lives in her father's service. Old men, Catelyn realized.
Edmure wore a blue-and-red cloak over a tunic embroidered with silver fish. From the look of him, he
had not shaved since she rode south;
his beard was a fiery bush. "Cat, it is good to have you safely back. When we heard of Renly's death,
we feared for your life. And Lord Tywin is on the march as well."
"So I am told. How fares our father?"
"One day he seems stronger, the next He shook his head. "He's
asked for you. I did not know what to tell him."
"I will go to him soon," she vowed. "Has there been word from Storm's End since Renly died? Or from
Bitterbridge?" No ravens came to men on the road, and Catelyn was anxious to know what had
happened behind her.
"Nothing from Bitterbridge. From Storm's End, three birds from the castellan, Ser Cortnay Penrose, all
carrying the same plea. Stannis has him surrounded by land and sea. He offers his allegiance to
whatsoever king will break the siege. He fears for the boy, he says. What boy would that be, do you
know?"
"Edric Storm," Brienne told them. "Robert's bastard son."
Edmure looked at her curiously. "Stannis has sworn that the garrison might go free, unharmed, provided
they yield the castle within the fortnight and deliver the boy into his hands, but Ser Cortnay will not
consent."
He risks all for a baseborn boy whose blood is not even his own, Catelyn thought. "Did you send him an
answer?"
Edmure shook his head. "Why, when we have neither help nor hope to offer? And Stannis is no enemy
of ours."
Ser Robin Ryger spoke. "My lady, can you tell us the manner of Lord Renly's death? The tales we've
heard have been queer."
"Cat," her brother said, "some say you killed Renly. Others claim it was some southron woman." His


glance lingered on Brienne.
"My king was murdered," the girl said quietly, "and not by Lady Catelyn. I swear it on my sword, by the
gods old and new."
"This is Brienne of Tarth, the daughter of Lord Selwyn the Evenstar, who served in Renly's Rainbow
Guard," Catelyn told them. "Brienne, I am honored to acquaint you with my brother Ser Edmure Tully,
heir to Riverrun. His steward Utherydes Wayn. Ser Robin Ryger and Ser Desmond Grell."
"Honored," said Ser Desmond. The others echoed him. The girl flushed, embarrassed even at this
commonplace courtesy. If Edmure thought her a curious sort of lady, at least he had the grace not to say
so.
"Brienne was with Renly when he was killed, as was I," said Catelyn, "but we had no part in his death."
She did not care to speak of the shadow, here in the open with men all around, so she waved a hand at
the bodies. "Who are these men you've hanged?"
Edmure glanced up uncomfortably. "They came with Ser Cleos when he brought the queen's answer to
our peace offer."
Catelyn was shocked. "You've killed envoys?"
"False envoys," Edmure declared. "They pledged me their peace and surrendered their weapons, so I
allowed them freedom of the castle, and for three nights they ate my meat and drank my mead whilst I
talked with Ser Cleos. On the fourth night, they tried to free the Kingslayer." He pointed up. "That big
brute killed two guards with naught but those ham hands of his, caught them by the throats and smashed
their skulls together while that skinny lad beside him was opening Lannister's cell with a bit of wire, gods
curse him. The one on the end was some sort of damned mummer. He used my own voice to command
that the River Gate be opened. The guardsmen swear to it, Enger and Delp and Long Lew, all three. If
you ask me, the man sounded nothing like me, and yet the oafs were raising the portcullis all the same."
This was the Imp's work, Catelyn suspected; it stank of the same sort of cunning he had displayed at the
Eyrie. Once, she would have named Tyrion the least dangerous of the Lannisters. Now she was not so
certain. "How is it you caught them?"
"Ah, as it happened, I was not in the castle. I'd crossed the Tumblestone to, ah . . ."
"You were whoring or wenching. Get on with the tale."
Edmure's cheeks flamed as red as his beard. "It was the hour before dawn, and I was only then
returning. When Long Lew saw my boat and recognized me, he finally thought to wonder who was
standing below barking commands, and raised a cry."
"Tell me the Kingslayer was retaken."
"Yes, though not easily. Jaime got hold of a sword, slew Poul Pernford and Ser Desmond's squire
Myles, and wounded Delp so badly that Maester Vyman fears he'll soon die as well. It was a bloody
mess. At the sound of steel, some of the other red cloaks rushed to join him, barehand or no. I hanged
those beside the four who freed him, and threw the rest in the dungeons. Jaime too. We'll have no more
escapes from that one. He's down in the dark this time, chained hand and foot and bolted to the wall."


"And Cleos Frey?"
"He swears he knew naught of the plot. Who can say? The man is half Lannister, half Frey, and all liar. I
put him in Jaime's old tower cell."
"You say he brought terms?"
"If you can call them that. You'll like them no more than I did, I promise."
"Can we hope for no help from the south, Lady Stark?" asked
Utherydes Wayn, her father's steward. "This charge of incest . . . Lord Tywin does not suffer such slights
lightly. He will seek to wash the stain from his daughter's name with the blood of her accuser, Lord
Stannis must see that. He has no choice but to make common cause with us."
Stannis has made common cause with a power greater and darker. "Let us speak of these matters later."
Catelyn trotted over the drawbridge, putting the grisly row of dead Lannisters behind her. Her brother
kept pace. As they rode out into the bustle of Riverrun's upper bailey, a naked toddler ran in front of the
horses. Catelyn jerked her reins hard to avoid him, glancing about in dismay. Hundreds of smallfolk had
been admitted to the castle, and allowed to erect crude shelters against the walls. Their children were
everywhere underfoot, and the yard teemed with their cows, sheep, and chickens. "Who are all these
folk?"
"My people," Edmure answered. "They were afraid."
Only my sweet brother would crowd all these useless mouths into a castle that might soon be under
siege. Catelyn knew that Edmure had a soft heart; sometimes she thought his head was even softer. She
loved him for it, yet still . . .
"Can Robb be reached by raven?"
"He's in the field, my lady," Ser Desmond replied. "The bird would have no way to find him."
Utherydes Wayn coughed. "Before he left us, the young king instructed us to send you on to the Twins
upon your return, Lady Stark. He asks that you learn more of Lord Walder's daughters, to help him
select his bride when the time comes."
"We'll provide you with fresh mounts and provisions," her brother promised. "You'll want to refresh
yourself before-"
"I'll want to stay," Catelyn said, dismounting. She had no intention of leaving Riverrun and her dying
father to pick Robb's wife for him. Robb wants me safe, I cannot fault him for that, but his pretext is
growing threadbare. "Boy," she called, and an urchin from the stables ran out to take the reins of her
horse.
Edmure swung down from his saddle. He was a head taller than she was, but he would always be her
little brother. "Cat," he said unhappily, "Lord Tywin is coming-"
"He is making for the west, to defend his own lands. If we close our gates and shelter behind the walls,
we can watch him pass with safety."


"This is Tully land," Edmure declared. "If Tywin Lannister thinks to cross it unbloodied, I mean to teach
him a hard lesson."
The same lesson you taught his son? Her brother could be stubborn as river rock when his pride was
touched, but neither of them was likely to forget how Ser Jaime had cut Edmure's host to bloody pieces
the last
time he had offered battle. "We have nothing to gain and everything to lose by meeting Lord Tywin in the
field," Catelyn said tactfully.
"The yard is not the place to discuss my battle plans."
"As you will. Where shall we go?"
Her brother's face darkened. For a moment she thought he was about to lose his temper with her, but
finally he snapped, "The godswood. If you will insist."
She followed him along a gallery to the godswood gate. Edmure's anger had always been a sulky, sullen
thing. Catelyn was sorry she had wounded him, but the matter was too important for her to concern
herself with his pride. When they were alone beneath the trees, Edmure turned to face her.
"You do not have the strength to meet the Lannisters in the field," she said bluntly.
"When all my strength is marshaled, I should have eight thousand foot and three thousand horse,"
Edmure said.
"Which means Lord Tywin will have near twice your numbers."
"Robb's won his battles against worse odds," Edmure replied, "and I have a plan. You've forgotten
Roose Bolton. Lord Tywin defeated him on the Green Fork, but failed to pursue. When Lord Tywin
went to Han renhal, Bolton took the ruby ford and the crossroads. He has ten thousand men. I've sent
word to Helman Tallhart to join him with the garrison Robb left at the Twins-"
"Edmure, Robb left those men to hold the Twins and make certain Lord Walder keeps faith with us."
"He has," Edmure said stubbornly. "The Freys fought bravely in the Whispering Wood, and old Ser
Stevron died at Oxcross, we hear. Ser Ryman and Black Walder and the rest are with Robb in the west,
Martyn has been of great service scouting, and Ser Perwyn helped see you safe to Renly. Gods be good,
how much more can we ask of them? Robb's betrothed to one of Lord Walder's daughters, and Roose
Bolton wed another, I hear. And haven't you taken two of his grandsons to be fostered at Winterfell?"
"A ward can easily become a hostage, if need be." She had not known that Ser Stevron was dead, nor
of Bolton's marriage.
"If we're two hostages to the good, all the more reason Lord Walder dare not play us false. Bolton
needs Frey's men, and Ser Helman's as well. I've commanded him to retake Harrenhal."
"That's like to be a bloody business."
"Yes, but once the castle falls, Lord Tywin will have no safe retreat. My own levies will defend the fords
of Red Fork against his crossing. If he attacks across the river, he'll end as Rhaegar did when he tried to


cross the Trident. If he holds back, he'll be caught between Riverrun and Harrenhal, and when Robb
returns from the west we can finish him for good and all."
Her brother's voice was full of brusque confidence, but Catelyn found herself wishing that Robb had not
taken her uncle Brynden west with him. The Blackfish was the veteran of half a hundred battles; Edmure
was the veteran of one, and that one lost.
"The plan's a good one," he concluded. "Lord Tytos says so, and Lord jonos as well. When did
Blackwood and Bracken agree about anything that was not certain, I ask you?"
"Be that as it may." She was suddenly weary. Perhaps she was wrong to oppose him. Perhaps it was a
splendid plan, and her misgivings only a woman's fears. She wished Ned were here, or her uncle
Brynden, or . . . "Have you asked Father about this?"
"Father is in no state to weigh strategies. Two days ago he was making plans for your marriage to
Brandon Stark! Go see him yourself if you do not believe me. This plan will work, Cat, you'll see."
"I hope so, Edmure. I truly do." She kissed him on the cheek, to let him know she meant it, and went to
find her father.
Lord Hoster Tully was much as she had left him-abed, haggard, flesh pale and clammy. The room
smelled of sickness, a cloying odor made up in equal parts of stale sweat and medicine. When she pulled
back the drapes, her father gave a low moan, and his eyes fluttered open. He stared at her as if he could
not comprehend who she was or what she wanted.
"Father." She kissed him. "I am returned."
He seemed to know her then. "You've come," he whispered faintly, lips barely moving.
"Yes," she said. "Robb sent me south, but I hurried back."
"South . . . where . . . is the Eyrie south, sweetling? I don't recall . . . oh, dear heart, I was afraid . . .
have you forgiven me, child?" Tears ran down his cheeks.
"You've done nothing that needs forgiveness, Father." She stroked his limp white hair and felt his brow.
The fever still burned him from within, despite all the maester's potions.
"It was best," her father whispered. "Jon's a good man, good . . . strong, kind . . . take care of you . . .
he will . . . and well born, listen to me, you must, I'm your father . . . your father . . . you'll wed when Cat
does, yes you will . . ."
He thinks I'm Lysa, Catelyn realized. Gods be good, he talks as if we were not married yet.
Her father's hands clutched at hers, fluttering like two frightened white birds. "That stripling . . . wretched
boy . . . not speak that name to me, your duty . . . your mother, she would . . ." Lord Hoster
cried as a spasm of pain washed over him. "Oh, gods forgive me, forgive me, forgive me. My medicine .
. ."
And then Maester Vyman was there, holding a cup to his lips. Lord Hoster sucked at the thick white


potion as eager as a babe at the breast, and Catelyn could see peace settle over him once more. "He'll
sleep now, my lady," the maester said when the cup was empty. The milk of the poppy had left a thick
white film around her father's mouth. Maester Vyman wiped it away with a sleeve.
Catelyn could watch no more. Hoster Tully had been a strong man, and proud. It hurt her to see him
reduced to this. She went out to the terrace. The yard below was crowded with refugees and chaotic
with their noises, but beyond the walls the rivers flowed clean and pure and endless. Those are his rivers,
and soon he will return to them for his last voyage.
Maester Vyman had followed her out. "My lady," he said softly, "I cannot keep the end at bay much
longer. We ought send a rider after his brother. Ser Brynden would wish to be here."
"Yes," Catelyn said, her voice thick with her grief.
"And the Lady Lysa as well, perhaps?"
"Lysa will not come."
"If you wrote her yourself, perhaps
"I will put some words to paper, if that please you." She wondered who Lysa's "wretched stripling" had
been. Some young squire or hedge knight, like as not . . . though by the vehemence with which Lord
Hoster had opposed him, he might have been a tradesman's son or baseborn apprentice, even a singer.
Lysa had always been too fond of singers. I must not blame her. Ion Arryn was twenty years older than
our father, however noble.
The tower her brother had set aside for her use was the very same that she and Lysa had shared as
maids. it would feel good to sleep on a featherbed again, with a warm fire in the hearth; when she was
rested the world would seem less bleak.
But outside her chambers she found Utherydes Wayn waiting with two women clad in grey, their faces
cowled save for their eyes. Catelyn knew at once why they were here. "Ned?"
The sisters lowered their gaze. Utherydes said, "Ser Cleos brought him from King's Landing, my lady."
"Take me to him," she commanded.
They had laid him out on a trestle table and covered him with a banner, the white banner of House Stark
with its grey direwolf sigil. "I would look on him," Catelyn said.
"Only the bones remain, my lady."
"I would look on him," she repeated.
One of the silent sisters turned down the banner.
Bones, Catelyn thought. This is not Ned, this is not the man I loved, the father of my children. His hands
were clasped together over his chest, skeletal fingers curled about the hilt of some longsword, but they
were not Ned's hands, so strong and full of life. They had dressed the bones in Ned's surcoat, the fine
white velvet with the direwolf badge over the heart, but nothing remained of the warm flesh that had
pillowed her head so many nights, the arms that had held her. The head had been rejoined to the body


with fine silver wire, but one skull looks much like another, and in those empty hollows she found no
trace of her lord's dark grey eyes, eyes that could be soft as a fog or hard as stone. They gave his eyes to
crows, she remembered.
Catelyn turned away. "That is not his sword."
"Ice was not returned to us, my lady," Utherydes said. "Only Lord Eddard's bones."
"I suppose I must thank the queen for even that much."
"Thank the Imp, my lady. It was his doing."
One day I will thank them all. "I am grateful for your service, sisters," Catelyn said, "but I must lay
another task upon you. Lord Eddard was a Stark, and his bones must be laid to rest beneath Winterfell."
They will make a statue of him, a stone likeness that will sit in the dark with a direwolf at his feet and a
sword across his knees. "Make certain the sisters have fresh horses, and aught else they need for the
journey," she told Utherydes Wayn. "Hal Mollen will escort them back to Winterfell, it is his place as
captain of guards." She gazed down at the bones that were all that remained of her lord and love. "Now
leave me, all of you. I would be alone with Ned tonight."
The women in grey bowed their heads. The silent sisters do not speak to the living, Catelyn remembered
dully, but some say they can talk to the dead. And how she envied that . . .
CHAPTER 40
DAENERYS
The drapes kept out the dust and heat of the streets, but they could not keep out disappointment. Dany
climbed inside wearily, glad for the refuge from the sea of Qartheen eyes. "Make way," Jhogo shouted at
the crowd from horseback, snapping his whip, "make way, make way for the Mother of Dragons."
Reclining on cool satin cushions, Xaro Xhoan Daxos poured ruby-red wine into matched goblets of jade
and gold, his hands sure and steady despite the sway of the palanquin. "I see a deep sadness written
upon your face, my light of love." He offered her a goblet. "Could it be the sadness of a lost dream?"
"A dream delayed, no more." Dany's tight silver collar was chafing against her throat. She unfastened it
and flung it aside. The collar was set with an enchanted amethyst that Xaro swore would ward her
against all poisons. The Pureborn were notorious for offering poisoned wine to those they thought
dangerous, but they had not given Dany so much as a cup of water. They never saw me for a queen, she
thought bitterly. I was only an afternoon's amusement, a horse girl with a curious pet.
Rhaegal hissed and dug sharp black claws into her bare shoulder as Dany stretched out a hand for the
wine. Wincing, she shifted him to her other shoulder, where he could claw her gown instead of her skin.
She was garbed after the Qartheen fashion. Xaro had warned her that the Enthroned would never listen
to a Dothraki, so she had taken care to go before them in flowing green samite with one breast bared,
silvered


sandals on her feet, with a belt of black-and-white pearls about her waist. For all the help they offered, I
could have gone naked. Perhaps I should have. She drank deep.
Descendants of the ancient kings and queens of Qarth, the Pureborn commanded the Civic Guard and
the fleet of ornate galleys that ruled the straits between the seas. Daenerys Targaryen had wanted that
fleet, or part of it, and some of their soldiers as well. She made the traditional sacrifice in the Temple of
Memory, offered the traditional bribe to the Keeper of the Long List, sent the traditional persimmon to
the opener of the Door, and finally received the traditional blue silk slippers summoning her to the Hall of
a Thousand Thrones.
The Pureborn heard her pleas from the great wooden seats of their ancestors, rising in curved tiers from
a marble floor to a high-domed ceiling painted with scenes of Qarth's vanished glory. The chairs were
immense, fantastically carved, bright with goldwork and studded with amber, onyx, lapis, and jade, each
one different from all the others, and each striving to be the most fabulous. Yet the men who sat in them
seemed so listless and world-weary that they might have been asleep. They listened, but they did not
hear, or care, she thought. They are Milk Men indeed. They never meant to help me. They came because
they were curious. They came because they were bored, and the dragon on my shoulder interested them
more than I did.
"Tell me the words of the Pureborn," prompted Xaro Xhoan Daxos. "Tell me what they said to sadden
the queen of my heart."
"They said no." The wine tasted of pomegranates and hot summer days. "They said it with great
courtesy, to be sure, but under all the lovely words, it was still no."
"Did you flatter them?"
"Shamelessly."
"Did you weep?"
"The blood of the dragon does not weep," she said testily.
Xaro sighed. "You ought to have wept." The Qartheen wept often and easily; it was considered a mark
of the civilized man. "The men we bought, what did they say?"
"Mathos said nothing. Wendello praised the way I spoke. The Exquisite refused me with the rest, but he
wept afterward."
, 'Alas, that Qartheen should be so faithless." Xaro was not himself of the Pureborn, but he had told her
whom to bribe and how much to offer. "Weep, weep, for the treachery of men."
Dany would sooner have wept for her gold. The bribes she'd tendered to Mathos Mallarawan,
Wendello Qar Deeth, and Egon Emeros the Exquisite might have bought her a ship, or hired a score of
sellswords. "Suppose I sent Ser Jorah to demand the return of my gifts?" she asked.
"Suppose a Sorrowful Man came to my palace one night and killed you as you slept," said Xaro. The
Sorrowful Men were an ancient sacred guild of assassins, so named because they always whispered, "I
am so sorry," to their victims before they killed them. The Qartheen were nothing if not polite. "It is wisely
said that it is easier to milk the Stone Cow of Faros than to wring gold from the Pureborn."


Dany did not know where Faros was, but it seemed to her that Qarth was full of stone cows. The
merchant princes, grown vastly rich off the trade between the seas, were divided into three jealous
factions: the Ancient Guild of Spicers, the Tourmaline Brotherhood, and the Thirteen, to which Xaro
belonged. Each vied with the others for dominance, and all three contended endlessly with the Pureborn.
And brooding over all were the warlocks, with their blue lips and dread powers, seldom seen but much
feared.
She would have been lost without Xaro. The gold that she had squandered to open the doors of the Hall
of a Thousand Thrones was largely a product of the merchant's generosity and quick wits. As the rumor
of living dragons had spread through the east, ever more seekers had come to learn if the tale was
true-and Xaro Xhoan Daxos saw to it that the great and the humble alike offered some token to the
Mother of Dragons.
The trickle he started soon swelled to a flood. Trader captains brought lace from Myr, chests of saffron
from Yi Ti, amber and dragonglass out of Asshai. Merchants offered bags of coin, silversmiths rings and
chains. Pipers piped for her, tumblers tumbled, and jugglers juggled, while dyers draped her in colors she
had never known existed. A pair of Jogos Nhai presented her with one of their striped zorses, black and
white and fierce. A widow brought the dried corpse of her husband, covered with a crust of silvered
leaves; such remnants were believed to have great power, especially if the deceased had been a sorcerer,
as this one had. And the Tourmaline Brotherhood pressed on her a crown wrought in the shape of a
three-headed dragon; the coils were yellow gold, the wings silver, the heads carved from jade, ivory, and
onyx.
The crown was the only offering she'd kept. The rest she sold, to gather the wealth she had wasted on
the Pureborn. Xaro would have sold the crown too-the Thirteen would see that she had a much finer
one, he swore-but Dany forbade it. "Viserys sold my mother's crown, and men called him a beggar. I
shall keep this one, so men will call me a queen." And so she did, though the weight of it made her neck
ache.
Yet even crowned, I am a beggar still, Dany thought. I have become the most splendid beggar in the
world, but a beggar all the same. She hated it, as her brother must have. All those years of running from
city to city one step ahead of the Usurper's knives, pleading for help from archons and princes and
magisters, buying our food with flattery. He
must have known how they mocked him. Small wonder he turned so angry and bitter. In the end it had
driven him mad. It will do the same to me if I let it. Part of her would have liked nothing more than to lead
her people back to Vaes Tolorro, and make the dead city bloom. No, that is defeat. I have something
Viserys never had. I have the dragons. The dragons are all the difference.
She stroked Rhaegal. The green dragon closed his teeth around the meat of her hand and nipped hard.
Outside, the great city murmured and thrummed and seethed, all its myriad voices blending into one low
sound like the surge of the sea. "Make way, you Milk Men, make way for the Mother of Dragons,"
Jhogo cried, and the Qartheen moved aside, though perhaps the oxen had more to do with that than his
voice. Through the swaying draperies, Dany caught glimpses of him astride his grey stallion. From time to
time he gave one of the oxen a flick with the silver-handled whip she had given him. Aggo guarded on her
other side, while Rakharo rode behind the procession, watching the faces in the crowd for any sign of
danger. Ser Jorah she had left behind today, to guard her other dragons; the exile knight had been
opposed to this folly from the start. He distrusts everyone, she reflected, and perhaps for good reason.
As Dany lifted her goblet to drink, Rhaegal sniffed at the wine and drew his head back, hissing. "Your
dragon has a good nose." Xaro wiped his lips. "The wine is ordinary. It is said that across the jade Sea


they make a golden vintage so fine that one sip makes all other wines taste like vinegar. Let us take my
pleasure barge and go in search of it, you and I."
"The Arbor makes the best wine in the world," Dany declared. Lord Redwyne had fought for her father
against the Usurper, she remembered, one of the few to remain true to the last. Will he fight for me as
well? There was no way to be certain after so many years. "Come with me to the Arbor, Xaro, and you'll
have the finest vintages you ever tasted. But we'll need to go in a warship, not a pleasure barge."
"I have no warships. War is bad for trade. Many times I have told you, Xaro Xhoan Daxos is a man of
peace."
Xaro Xhoan Daxos is a man of gold, she thought, and gold will buy me all the ships and swords I need.
"I have not asked you to take up a sword, only to lend me your ships."
He smiled modestly. "Of trading ships I have a few, that is so. Who can say how many? One may be
sinking even now, in some stormy corner of the Summer Sea. On the morrow, another will fall afoul of
corsairs. The next day, one of my captains may look at the wealth in his hold and think, All this should
belong to me. Such are the perils of trade.
Why, the longer we talk, the fewer ships I am likely to have. I grow poorer by the instant."
"Give me ships, and I will make you rich again."
"Marry me, bright light, and sail the ship of my heart. I cannot sleep at night for thinking of your beauty."
Dany smiled. Xaro's flowery protestations of passion amused her, but his manner was at odds with his
words. While Ser Jorah had scarcely been able to keep his eyes from her bare breast when he'd helped
her into the palanquin, Xaro hardly deigned to notice it, even in these close confines. And she had seen
the beautiful boys who surrounded the merchant prince, flitting through his palace halls in wisps of silk.
"You speak sweetly, Xaro, but under your words I hear another no."
"This Iron Throne you speak of sounds monstrous cold and hard. I cannot bear the thought of jagged
barbs cutting your sweet skin." The jewels in Xaro's nose gave him the aspect of some strange glittery
bird. His long, elegant fingers waved dismissal. "Let this be your kingdom, most exquisite of queens, and
let me be your king. I will give you a throne of gold, if you like. When Qarth begins to pall, we can
journey round Yi Ti and search for the dreaming city of the poets, to sip the wine of wisdom from a dead
man's skull."
"I mean to sail to Westeros, and drink the wine of vengeance from the skull of the Usurper." She
scratched Rhaegal under one eye, and his jadegreen wings unfolded for a moment, stirring the still air in
the palanquin.
A single perfect tear ran down the cheek of Xaro Xhoan Daxos. "Will nothing turn you from this
madness?"
"Nothing," she said, wishing she was as certain as she sounded. "If each of the Thirteen would lend me
ten ships-"
"You would have one hundred thirty ships, and no crew to sail them. The justice of your cause means
naught to the common men of Qarth. Why should my sailors care who sits upon the throne of some
kingdom at the edge of the world?"


"I will pay them to care."
"With what coin, sweet star of my heaven?"
"With the gold the seekers bring."
"That you may do," Xaro acknowledged, "but so much caring will cost dear. You will need to pay them
far more than I do, and all of Qarth laughs at my ruinous generosity."
"If the Thirteen will not aid me, perhaps I should ask the Guild of Spicers or the Tourmaline
Brotherhood?"
Xaro gave a languid shrug. "They will give you nothing but flattery and lies. The Spicers are dissemblers
and braggarts and the Brotherhood is full of pirates."
"Then I must heed Pyat Free, and go to the warlocks."
The merchant prince sat up sharply. "Pyat Pree has blue lips, and it is truly said that blue lips speak only
lies. Heed the wisdom of one who loves you. Warlocks are bitter creatures who eat dust and drink of
shadows. They will give you naught. They have naught to give."
"I would not need to seek sorcerous help if my friend Xaro Xhoan Daxos would give me what I ask."
"I have given you my home and heart, do they mean nothing to you? I have given you perfume and
pomegranates, tumbling monkeys and spitting snakes, scrolls from lost Valyria, an idol's head and a
serpent's foot. I have given you this palanquin of ebony and gold, and a matched set of bullocks to bear
it, one white as ivory and one black as jet, with horns inlaid with jewels."
"Yes," Dany said. "But it was ships and soldiers I wanted."
"Did I not give you an army, sweetest of women? A thousand knights, each in shining armor."
The armor had been made of silver and gold, the knights of jade and beryl and onyx and tourmaline, of
amber and opal and amethyst, each as tall as her little finger. "A thousand lovely knights," she said, "but
not the sort my enemies need fear. And my bullocks cannot carry me across the water, I-why are we
stopping?" The oxen had slowed notably.
"Khaleesi, " Aggo called through the drapes as the palanquin jerked to a sudden halt. Dany rolled onto
an elbow to lean out. They were on the fringes of the bazaar, the way ahead blocked by a solid wall of
people. "What are they looking at?"
Jhogo rode back to her. "A firemage, Khaleesi."
"I want to sec."
"Then you must." The Dothraki offered a hand down. When she took it, he pulled her up onto his horse
and sat her in front of him, where she could see over the heads of the crowd. The firemage had conjured
a ladder in the air, a crackling orange ladder of swirling flame that rose unsupported from the floor of the
bazaar, reaching toward the high latticed roof.


Most of the spectators, she noticed, were not of the city: she saw sailors off trading ships, merchants
come by caravan, dusty men out of the red waste, wandering soldiers, craftsmen, slavers. Jhogo, slid one
hand about her waist and leaned close. "The Milk Men shun him. Khaleesi, do you see the girl in the felt
hat? There, behind the fat priest. She is a-"
"-cutpurse," finished Dany. She was no pampered lady, blind to such things. She had seen cutpurses
aplenty in the streets of the Free Cities, during the years she'd spent with her brother, running from the
Usurper's hired knives.
The mage was gesturing, urging the flames higher and higher with
broad sweeps of his arms. As the watchers craned their necks upward, the cutpurses squirmed through
the press, small blades hidden in their palms. They relieved the prosperous of their coin with one hand
while pointing upward with the other.
When the fiery ladder stood forty feet high, the mage leapt forward and began to climb it, scrambling up
hand over hand as quick as a monkey. Each rung he touched dissolved behind him, leaving no more than
a wisp of silver smoke. When he reached the top, the ladder was gone and so was he.
"A fine trick," announced Jhogo with admiration.
"No trick," a woman said in the Common Tongue.
Dany had not noticed Quaithe in the crowd, yet there she stood, eyes wet and shiny behind the
implacable red lacquer mask. "What mean you, my lady?"
"Half a year gone, that man could scarcely wake fire from dragonglass. He had some small skill with
powders and wildfire, sufficient to entrance a crowd while his cutpurses did their work. He could walk
across hot coals and make burning roses bloom in the air, but he could no more aspire to climb the fiery
ladder than a common fisherman could hope to catch a kraken in his nets."
Dany looked uneasily at where the ladder had stood. Even the smoke was gone now, and the crowd
was breaking up, each man going about his business. In a moment more than a few would find their
purses flat and empty. "And now?"
"And now his powers grow, Khaleesi. And you are the cause of it."
"Me?" She laughed. "How could that be?"
The woman stepped closer and lay two fingers on Dany's wrist. "You are the Mother of Dragons, are
you not?"
"She is, and no spawn of shadows may touch her." Jhogo brushed Quaithe's fingers away with the
handle of his whip.
The woman took a step backward. "You must leave this city soon, Daenerys Targaryen, or you will
never be permitted to leave it at all."
Dany's wrist still tingled where Quaithe had touched her. "Where would you have me go?" she asked.
"To go north, you must journey south. To reach the west, you must go east. To go forward you must go


back, and to touch the light you must pass beneath the shadow."
Asshai, Dany thought. She would have me go to Asshai. "Will the Asshai'i give me an army?" she
demanded. "Will there be gold for me in Asshai? Will there be ships? What is there in Asshai that I will
not find in Qarth?"
"Truth," said the woman in the mask. And bowing, she faded back into the crowd.
Rakharo snorted contempt through his drooping black mustachios. "Khaleesi, better a man should
swallow scorpions than trust in the spawn of shadows, who dare not show their face beneath the sun. It
is known."
"It is known," Aggo agreed.
Xaro Xhoan Daxos had watched the whole exchange from his cushions. When Dany climbed back into
the palanquin beside him, he said, "Your savages are wiser than they know. Such truths as the Asshai'i
hoard are not like to make you smile." Then he pressed another cup of wine on her, and spoke of love
and lust and other trifles all the way back to his manse.
In the quiet of her chambers, Dany stripped off her finery and donned a loose robe of purple silk. Her
dragons were hungry, so she chopped up a snake and charred the pieces over a brazier. They are
growing, she realized as she watched them snap and squabble over the blackened flesh. They must weigh
twice what they had in Vaes Tolorro. Even so, it would be years before they were large enough to take
to war. And they must be trained as well, or they will lay my kingdom waste. For all her Targaryen
blood, Dany had not the least idea of how to train a dragon.
Ser Jorah Mormont came to her as the sun was going down. "The Pureborn refused you?"
"As you said they would. Come, sit, give me your counsel." Dany drew him down to the cushions beside
her, and Jhiqui brought them a bowl of purple olives and onions drowned in wine.
"You will get no help in this city, Khaleesi." Ser Jorah took an onion between thumb and forefinger.
"Each day I am more convinced of that than the day before. The Pureborn see no farther than the walls
of Qarth, and Xaro . . ."
"He asked me to marry him again."
"Yes, and I know why." When the knight frowned, his heavy black brows joined together above his
deep-set eyes.
"He dreams of me, day and night." She laughed.
"Forgive me, my queen, but it is your dragons he dreams of."
"Xaro assures me that in Qarth, man and woman each retain their own property after they are wed. The
dragons are mine." She smiled as Drogon came hopping and flapping across the marble floor to crawl up
on the cushion beside her.
"He tells it true as far as it goes, but there's one thing he failed to mention. The Qartheen have a curious
wedding custom, my queen. On the day of their union, a wife may ask a token of love from her husband.
Whatsoever she desires of his worldly goods, he must grant. And he may ask the same of her. One thing


only may be asked, but whatever is named may not be denied."
"One thing," she repeated. "And it may not be denied?"
"With one dragon, Xaro Xhoan Daxos would rule this city, but one ship will further our cause but little."
Dany nibbled at an onion and reflected ruefully on the faithlessness of men. "We passed through the
bazaar on our way back from the Hall of a Thousand Thrones," she told Ser Jorah. "Quaithe was there."
She told him of the firemage and the fiery ladder, and what the woman in the red mask had told her.
"I would be glad to leave this city, if truth be told," the knight said when she was done. "But not for
Asshai."
"Where, then?"
"East," he said.
"I am half a world away from my kingdom even here. If I go any farther east I may never find my way
home to Westeros."
"If you go west, you risk your life."
"House Targaryen has friends in the Free Cities," she reminded him. "Truer friends than Xaro or the
Pureborn."
"If you mean Illyrio Mopatis, I wonder. For sufficient gold, Illyrio would sell you as quickly as he would
a slave."
"My brother and I were guests in Illyrio's manse for half a year. If he meant to sell us, he could have
done it then."
"He did sell you," Ser Jorah said. "To Khal Drogo."
Dany flushed. He had the truth of it, but she did not like the sharpness with which he put it. "Illyrio
protected us from the Usurper's knives, and he believed in my brother's cause."
"Illyrio believes in no cause but Illyrio. Gluttons are greedy men as a rule, and magisters are devious.
Illyrio Mopatis is both. What do you truly know of him?"
"I know that he gave me my dragon eggs."
He snorted. "If he'd known they were like to hatch, he'd would have sat on them himself."
That made her smile despite herself. "Oh, I have no doubt of that, ser. I know Illyrio better than you
think. I was a child when I left his manse in Pentos to wed my sun-and-stars, but I was neither deaf nor
blind. And I am no child now."
"Even if Illyrio is the friend you think him," the knight said stubbornly, "he is not powerful enough to
enthrone you by himself, no more than he could your brother."
"He is rich," she said. "Not so rich as Xaro, perhaps, but rich enough to hire ships for me, and men as


well."
"Sellswords have their uses," Ser Jorah admitted, "but you will not win your father's throne with
sweepings from the Free Cities. Nothing knits a broken realm together so quick as an invading army on
its soil."
"I am their rightful queen," Dany protested.
"You are a stranger who means to land on their shores with an army of outlanders who cannot even
speak the Common Tongue. The lords of Westeros do not know you, and have every reason to fear and
mistrust you. You must win them over before you sail. A few at least."
"And how am I to do that, if I go east as you counsel?"
He ate an olive and spit out the pit into his palm. "I do not know, Your Grace," he admitted, "but I do
know that the longer you remain in one place, the easier it will be for your enemies to find you. The name
Targaryen still frightens them, so much so that they sent a man to murder you when they heard you were
with child. What will they do when they learn of your dragons?"
Drogon was curled up beneath her arm, as hot as a stone that has soaked all day in the blazing sun.
Rhaegal and Viserion were fighting over a scrap of meat, buffeting each other with their wings as smoke
hissed from their nostrils. My furious children, she thought. They must not come to harm. "The comet led
me to Qarth for a reason. I had hoped to find my army here, but it seems that will not be. What else
remains, I ask myself?" I am afraid, she realized, but I must be brave. "Come the morrow, you must go to
Pyat Pree."
CHAPTER 41
TYRION
The girl never wept. Young as she was, Myrcella Baratheon was a princess born. And a Lannister,
despite her name, Tyrion reminded himself, as much faime's blood as Cersei's.
To be sure, her smile was a shade tremulous when her brothers took their leave of her on the deck of
the Seaswift, but the girl knew the proper words to say, and she said them with courage and dignity.
When the time came to part, it was Prince Tornmen who cried, and Myrcella who gave him comfort.
Tyrion looked down upon the farewells from the high deck of King Robert's Hammer, a great war galley
of four hundred oars. Rob's Hammer, as her oarsmen called her, would form the main strength of
Myrcella's escort. Lionstar, Bold Wind, and Lady Lyanna would sail with her as well.
It made Tyrion more than a little uneasy to detach so great a part of their already inadequate fleet,
depleted as it was by the loss of all those ships that had sailed with Lord Stannis to Dragonstone and
never returned, but Cersei would hear of nothing less. Perhaps she was wise. If the girl was captured
before she reached Sunspear, the Dornish alliance would fall to pieces. So far Doran Martell had done
no more than call his banners. Once Myrcella was safe in Braavos, he had pledged to move his strength
to the high passes, where the threat might make some of the Marcher lords rethink their loyalties and give


Stannis pause about marching north. It was purely a feint, however. The Martells would not
commit to actual battle unless Dorne itself was attacked, and Stannis was not so great a fool. Though
some of his bannermen may be, Tyrion reflected. I should think on that.
He cleared his throat. "You know your orders, Captain."
"I do, my lord. We are to follow the coast, staying always in sight of land, until we reach Crackclaw
Point. From there we are to strike out across the narrow sea for Braavos. On no account are we to sail
within sight of Dragonstone."
"And if our foes should chance upon you nonetheless?"
"If a single ship, we are to run them off or destroy them. If there are more, the Bold Wind will cleave to
the Seaswift to protect her while the rest of the fleet does battle."
Tyrion nodded. If the worst happened, the little Seaswift ought to be able to outrun pursuit. A small ship
with big sails, she was faster than any warship afloat, or so her captain had claimed. Once Myrcella
reached Braavos, she ought to be safe. He was sending Ser Arys Oakheart as her sworn shield, and had
engaged the Braavosi to bring her the rest of the way to Sunspear. Even Lord Stannis would hesitate to
wake the anger of the greatest and most powerful of the Free Cities. Traveling from King's Landing to
Dorne by way of Braavos was scarcely the most direct of routes, but it was the safest . . . or so he
hoped.
If Lord Stannis knew of this sailing, he could not choose a better time to send his fleet against us. Tyrion
glanced back to where the Rush emptied out into Blackwater Bay and was relieved to see no signs of
sails on the wide green horizon. At last report, the Baratheon fleet still lay off Storm's End, where Ser
Cortnay Penrose continued to defy the besiegers in dead Renly's name. Meanwhile, Tyrion's winch
towers stood threequarters complete. Even now men were hoisting heavy blocks of stone into place, no
doubt cursing him for making them work through the festivities. Let them curse. Another fortnight,
Stannis, that's all I require. Another fortnight and it will be done.
Tyrion watched his niece kneel before the High Septon to receive his blessing on her voyage. Sunlight
caught in his crystal crown and spilled rainbows across Myrcella's upturned face. The noise from the
riverside made it impossible to hear the prayers. He hoped the gods had sharper ears. The High Septon
was as fat as a house, and more pompous and long of wind than even Pycelle. Enough, old man, make
an end to it, Tyrion thought irritably. The gods have better things to do than listen to you, and so do I.
When at last the droning and mumbling was done, Tyrion took his farewell of the captain of Rob's
Hammer. "Deliver my niece safely to Braavos, and there will be a knighthood waiting for you on your
return," he promised.
As he made his way down the steep plank to the quay, Tyrion could feel unkind eyes upon him. The
galley rocked gently and the movement underfoot made his waddle worse than ever. I'll wager they'd
love to snigger. No one dared, not openly, though he heard mutterings mingled with the creak of wood
and rope and the rush of the river around the pilings. They do not love me, he thought. Well, small
wonder. I'm well fed and ugly, and they are starving.
Bronn escorted him through the crowd to join his sister and her sons. Cersei ignored him, preferring to
lavish her smiles on their cousin. He watched her charming Lancel with eyes as green as the rope of
emeralds around her slim white throat, and smiled a small sly smile to himself. I know your secret, Cersei,


he thought. His sister had oft called upon the High Septon of late, to seek the blessings of the gods in
their coming struggle with Lord Stannis . . . or so she would have him believe. In truth, after a brief call at
the Great Sept of Baelor, Cersei would don a plain brown traveler's cloak and steal off to meet a certain
hedge knight with the unlikely name of Ser Osmund Kettleblack, and his equally unsavory brothers
Osney and Osfryd. Lancel had told him all about them. Cersei meant to use the Kettleblacks to buy her
own force of sellswords.
Well, let her enjoy her plots. She was much sweeter when she thought she was outwitting him. The
Kettleblacks would charm her, take her coin, and promise her anything she asked, and why not, when
Bronn was matching every copper penny, coin for coin? Amiable rogues all three, the brothers were in
truth much more skilled at deceit than they'd ever been at bloodletting. Cersei had managed to buy
herself three hollow drums; they would make all the fierce booming sounds she required, but there was
nothing inside. It amused Tyrion no end.
Horns blew fanfares as Lionstar and Lady Lyanna pushed out from shore, moving downriver to clear the
way for Seaswift. A few cheers went up from the crush along the banks, as thin and ragged as the clouds
scuttling overhead. Myrcella smiled and waved from the deck. Behind her stood Arys Oakheart, his
white cloak streaming. The captain ordered lines cast off, and oars pushed the Seaswift out into the lusty
current of the Blackwater Rush, where her sails blossomed in the wind-common white sails, as Tyrion
had insisted, not sheets of Lannister crimson. Prince Tornmen sobbed. "You mew like a suckling babe,"
his brother hissed at him. "Princes aren't supposed to cry."
"Prince Aemon the Dragonknight cried the day Princess Naerys wed his brother Aegon," Sansa Stark
said, "and the twins Ser Arryk and Ser Erryk died with tears on their cheeks after each had given the
other a mortal wound."
"Be quiet, or I'll have Ser Meryn give you a mortal wound," Joffrey told his betrothed. Tyrion glanced at
his sister, but Cersei was engrossed
in something Ser Balon Swann was telling her. Can she truly be so blind as to what he is? he wondered.
Out on the river, Bold Wind unshipped her oars and glided downstream in the wake of Seaswift. Last
came King Robert's Hammer, the might of the royal fleet . . . or at least that portion that had not fled to
Dragonstone last year with Stannis. Tyrion had chosen the ships with care, avoiding any whose captains
might be of doubtful loyalty, according to Varys . . . but as Varys himself was of doubtful loyalty, a
certain amount of apprehension remained. I rely too much on Varys, he reflected. I need my own
informers. Not that I'd trust them either. Trust would get you killed.
He wondered again about Littlefinger. There had been no word from Petyr Baelish since he had ridden
off for Bitterbridge. That might mean nothing-or everything. Even Varys could not say. The eunuch had
suggested that perhaps Littlefinger had met some misfortune on the roads. He might even be slain. Tyrion
had snorted in derision. "If Littlefinger is dead, then I'm a giant." More likely, the Tyrells were balking at
the proposed marriage. Tyrion could scarcely blame them. If I were Mace 7)7rell, I would sooner have
loffrey's head on a pike than his cock in my daughter.
The little fleet was well out into the bay when Cersei indicated that it was time to go. Bronn brought
Tyrion's horse and helped him mount. That was Podrick Payne's task, but they had left Pod back at the
Red Keep. The gaunt sellsword made for a much more reassuring presence than the boy would have.
The narrow streets were lined by men of the City Watch, holding back the crowd with the shafts of their
spears. Ser Jacelyn Bywater went in front, heading a wedge of mounted lancers in black ringmail and


golden cloaks. Behind him came Ser Aron Santagar and Ser Balon Swann, bearing the king's banners,
the lion of Lannister and crowned stag of Baratheon.
King Joffrey followed on a tall grey palfrey, a golden crown set upon his golden curls. Sansa Stark rode
a chesnut mare at his side, looking neither right nor left, her thick auburn hair flowing to her shoulders
beneath a net of moonstones. Two of the Kingsguard flanked the couple, the Hound on the king's right
hand and Ser Mandon Moore to the left of the Stark girl.
Next came Tommen, snuffling, with Ser Preston Greenfield in his white armor and cloak, and then
Cersei, accompanied by Ser Lancel and protected by Meryn Trant and Boros Blount. Tyrion fell in with
his sister. After them followed the High Septon in his litter, and a long tail of other courtiers-Ser Horas
Redwyne, Lady Tanda and her daughter, jalabhar
Xho, Lord Gyles Rosby, and the rest. A double column of guardsmen brought up the rear.
The unshaven and the unwashed stared at the riders with dull resentment from behind the line of spears. I
like this not one speck, Tyrion thought. Bronn had a score of sellswords scattered through the crowd
with orders to stop any trouble before it started. Perhaps Cersei had similarly disposed her Kettleblacks.
Somehow Tyrion did not think it would help much. If the fire was too hot, you could hardly keep the
pudding from scorching by tossing a handful of raisins in the pot.
They crossed Fishmonger's Square and rode along Muddy Way before turning onto the narrow, curving
Hook to begin their climb up Aegon's High Hill. A few voices raised a cry of "loffrey! All hail, all hail!" as
the young king rode by, but for every man who picked up the shout, a hundred kept their silence. The
Larmisters moved through a sea of ragged men and hungry women, breasting a tide of sullen eyes. just
ahead of him, Cersei was laughing at something Lancel had said, though he suspected her merriment was
feigned. She could not be oblivious to the unrest around them, but his sister always believed in putting on
the brave show.
Halfway along the route, a wailing woman forced her way between two watchmen and ran out into the
street in front of the king and his companions, holding the corpse of her dead baby above her head. It
was blue and swollen, grotesque, but the real horror was the mother's eyes. Joffrey looked for a moment
as if he meant to ride her down, but Sansa Stark leaned over and said something to him. The king
fumbled in his purse, and flung the woman a silver stag. The coin bounced off the child and rolled away,
under the legs of the gold cloaks and into the crowd, where a dozen men began to fight for it. The mother
never once blinked. Her skinny arms were trembling from the dead weight of her son.
"Leave her, Your Grace," Cersei called out to the king, "she's beyond our help, poor thing."
The mother heard her. Somehow the queen's voice cut through the woman's ravaged wits. Her slack
face twisted in loathing. "Whore!" she shrieked. "Kingslayer's whore! Brotherfucker!" Her dead child
dropped from her arms like a sack of flour as she pointed at Cersei. "Brotherfucker brotherfucker
brotherfucker."
Tyrion never saw who threw the dung. He only heard Sansa's gasp and Joffrey's bellowed curse, and
when he turned his head, the king was wiping brown filth from his cheek. There was more caked in his
golden hair and spattered over Sansa's legs.
"Who threw that?" Joffrey screamed. He pushed his fingers into his hair, made a furious face, and flung
away another handful of dung. "I


want the man who threw that!" he shouted. "A hundred golden dragons to the man who gives him up."
"He was up there!" someone shouted from the crowd. The king wheeled his horse in a circle to survey
the rooftops and open balconies above them. In the crowd people were pointing, shoving, cursing one
another and the king.
"Please, Your Grace, let him go," Sansa pleaded.
The king paid her no heed. "Bring me the man who flung that filth!" Joffrey commanded. "He'll lick it off
me or I'll have his head. Dog, you bring him here!"
Obedient, Sandor Clegane swung down from his saddle, but there was no way through that wall of flesh,
let alone to the roof. Those closest to him began to squirm and shove to get away, while others pushed
forward to see. Tyrion smelled disaster. "Clegane, leave off, the man is long fled."
"I want him!" Joffrey pointed at the roof. "He was up there! Dog, cut through them and bring-"
A tumult of sound drowned his last words, a rolling thunder of rage and fear and hatred that engulfed
them from all sides. "Bastard!" someone screamed at Joffrey, "bastard monster." Other voices flung calls
of "Whore" and "Brotherfucker" at the queen, while Tyrion was pelted with shouts of "Freak" and
"Halfman." Mixed in with the abuse, he heard a few cries of "Justice" and "Robb, King Robb, the Young
Wolf," of "Stannis!" and even "Renly!" From both sides of the street, the crowd surged against the spear
shafts while the gold cloaks struggled to hold the line. Stones and dung and fouler things whistled
overhead. "Feed us!" a woman shrieked. "Bread!" boomed a man behind her. "We want bread,
bastard!" In a heartbeat, a thousand voices took up the chant. King Joffrey and King Robb and King
Stannis were forgotten, and King Bread ruled alone. "Bread," they clamored. "Bread, bread!"
Tyrion spurred to his sister's side, yelling, "Back to the castle. Now" Cersei gave a curt nod, and Ser
Lancel unsheathed his sword. Ahead of the column, Jacelyn Bywater was roaring commands. His riders
lowered their lances and drove forward in a wedge. The king was wheeling his palfrey around in anxious
circles while hands reached past the line of gold cloaks, grasping for him. One managed to get hold of his
leg, but only for an instant. Ser Mandon's sword slashed down, parting hand from wrist. "Ride!" Tyrion
shouted at his nephew, giving the horse a sharp smack on the rump. The animal reared, trumpeting, and
plunged ahead, the press shattering before him.
Tyrion drove into the gap hard on the king's hooves. Bronn kept pace, sword in hand. A jagged rock
flew past his head as he rode, and a rotten cabbage exploded against Ser Mandon's shield. To their left,
three gold
cloaks went down under the surge, and then the crowd was rushing forward, trampling the fallen men.
The Hound had vanished behind, though his riderless horse galloped beside them. Tyrion saw Aron
Santagar pulled from the saddle, the gold-and-black Baratheon stag torn from his grasp. Ser Balon
Swann dropped the Lannister lion to draw his longsword. He slashed right and left as the fallen banner
was ripped apart, the thousand ragged pieces swirling away like crimson leaves in a stormwind. In an
instant they were gone. Someone staggered in front of Joffrey's horse and shrieked as the king rode him
down. Whether it had been man, woman, or child Tyrion could not have said. Joffrey was galloping at his
side, whey-faced, with Ser Mandon Moore a white shadow on his left.
And suddenly the madness was behind and they were clattering across the cobbled square that fronted
on the castle barbican. A line of spearmen held the gates. Ser Jacelyn was wheeling his lances around for
another charge. The spears parted to let the king's party pass under the portcullis. Pale red walls loomed


up about them, reassuringly high and aswarm with crossbowmen.
Tyrion did not recall dismounting. Ser Mandon was helping the shaken king off his horse when Cersei,
Tommen, and Lancel rode through the gates with Ser Meryn and Ser Boros close behind. Boros had
blood smeared along his blade, while Meryn's white cloak had been torn from his back. Ser Balon
Swann rode in helmetless, his mount lathered and bleeding at the mouth. Horas Redwyne brought in
Lady Tanda, half crazed with fear for her daughter Lollys, who had been knocked from the saddle and
left behind. Lord Gyles, more grey of face than ever, stammered out a tale of seeing the High Septon
spilled from his litter, screeching prayers as the crowd swept over him. Jalabhar Xho said he thought he'd
seen Ser Preston Greenfield of the Kingsguard riding back toward the High Septon's overturned litter,
but he was not certain.
Tyrion was dimly aware of a maester asking if he was injured. He pushed his way across the yard to
where his nephew stood, his dungencrusted crown askew. "Traitors," Joffrey was babbling excitedly, "I'll
have all their heads, Ill-"
The dwarf slapped his flushed face so hard the crown flew from Joffrey's head. Then he shoved him with
both hands and knocked him sprawling. "You blind bloody fool."
"They were traitors," Joffrey squealed from the ground. "They called me names and attacked me!"
"You set your dog on them! What did you imagine they would do, bend the knee meekly while the
Hound lopped off some limbs? You spoiled witless little boy, you've killed Clegane and gods know how
many more, and yet you come through unscratched. Damn you!" And he kicked him. It felt so good he
might have done more, but Ser Mandon Moore pulled him off as Joffrey howled, and then Bronn was
there to take him in hand. Cersei knelt over her son, while Ser Balon Swann restrained Ser Lancel.
Tyrion wrenched free of Bronn's grip. "How many are still out there?" he shouted to no one and
everyone.
"My daughter," cried Lady Tanda. "Please, someone must go back for Lollys . . ."
"Ser Preston is not returned," Ser Boros Blount reported, "nor Aron Santagar."
"Nor Wet Nurse," said Ser Horas Redwyne. That was the mocking name the other squires had hung on
young Tyrek Lannister.
Tyrion glanced round the yard. "Where's the Stark girl?"
For a moment no one answered. Finally Joffrey said, "She was riding by me. I don't know where she
went."
Tyrion pressed blunt fingers into his throbbing temples. If Sansa Stark had come to harm, Jaime was as
good as dead. "Ser Mandon, you were her shield."
Ser Mandon Moore remained untroubled. "When they mobbed the Hound, I thought first of the king."
"And rightly so," Cersei put in. "Boros, Meryn, go back and find the girl."
"And my daughter," Lady Tanda sobbed. "Please, sers


Ser Boros did not look pleased at the prospect of leaving the safety of the castle. "Your Grace," he told
the queen, "the sight of our white cloaks might enrage the mob."
Tyrion had stomached all he cared to. "The Others take your fucking cloaks! Take them off if you're
afraid to wear them, you bloody oaf . . . but find me Sansa Stark or I swear, I'll have Shagga split that
ugly head of yours in two to see if there's anything inside but black pudding."
Ser Boros went purple with rage. "You would call me ugly, you?" He started to raise the bloody sword
still clutched in his mailed fist. Bronn shoved Tyrion unceremoniously behind him.
"Stop it!" Cersei snapped. "Boros, you'll do as you're bid, or we'll find someone else to wear that cloak.
Your oath-"
"There she is!" Joffrey shouted, pointing.
Sandor Clegane cantered briskly through the gates astride Sansa's chestnut courser. The girl was seated
behind, both arms tight around the Hound's chest.
Tyrion called to her. "Are you hurt, Lady Sansa?"
Blood was trickling down Sansa's brow from a deep gash on her scalp. "They . . . they were throwing
things . . . rocks and filth, eggs . . . I tried to tell them, I had no bread to give them. A man tried to pull
me
from the saddle. The Hound killed him, I think ... his arm . . ." Her eyes widened and she put a hand
over her mouth. "He cut off his arm."
Clegane lifted her to the ground. His white cloak was torn and stained, and blood seeped through a
jagged tear in his left sleeve. "The little bird's bleeding. Someone take her back to her cage and see to
that cut." Maester Frenken scurried forward to obey. "They did for Santagar, " the Hound continued.
"Four men held him down and took turns bashing at his head with a cobblestone. I gutted one, not that it
did Ser Aron much good."
Lady Tanda approached him. "My daughter-"
"Never saw her." The Hound glanced around the yard, scowling. "Where's my horse? If anything's
happened to that horse, someone's going to pay."
"He was running with us for a time," Tyrion said, "but I don't know what became of him after that."
"Fire!" a voice screamed down from atop the barbican. "My lords, there's smoke in the city. Flea
Bottom's afire."
Tyrion was inutterably weary, but there was no time for despair. "Bronn, take as many men as you need
and see that the water wagons are not molested," Gods be good, the wildfire, if any blaze should reach
that . . . "We can lose all of Flea Bottom if we must, but on no account must the fire reach the Guildhall of
the Alchemists, is that understood? Clegane, you'll go with him."
For half a heartbeat, Tyrion thought he glimpsed fear in the Hound's dark eyes. Fire, he realized. The
Others take me, of course he hates flre, he's tasted it too well. The look was gone in an instant, replaced
by Clegane's familiar scowl. "I'll go," he said, "though not by your command. I need to find that horse."


Tyrion turned to the three remaining knights of the Kingsguard. "Each of you will ride escort to a herald.
Command the people to return to their homes. Any man found on the streets after the last peal of the
evenfall bell will be killed."
"Our place is beside the king," Ser Meryn said, complacent.
Cersei reared up like a viper. "Your place is where my brother says it is," she spit. "The Hand speaks
with the king's own voice, and disobedience is treason."
Boros and Meryn exchanged a look. "Should we wear our cloaks, Your Grace?" Ser Boros asked.
"Go naked for all I care. It might remind the mob that you're men. They're like to have forgotten after
seeing the way you behaved out there in the street."
Tyrion let his sister rage. His head was throbbing. He thought he could smell smoke, though perhaps it
was just the scent of his nerves fraying.
Two of the Stone Crows guarded the door of the Tower of the Hand. "Find me Timett son of Timett."
"Stone Crows do not run squeaking after Burned Men," one of the wildlings informed him haughtily.
For a moment Tyrion had forgotten who he was dealing with. "Then find me Shagga."
"Shagga sleeps."
It was an effort not to scream. "Wake. Him."
"It is no easy thing to wake Shagga son of Dolf," the man complained. "His wrath is fearsome." He went
off grumbling.
The clansman wandered in yawning and scratching. "Half the city is rioting, the other half is burning, and
Shagga lies snoring," Tyrion said.
"Shagga mislikes your muddy water here, so he must drink your weak ale and sour wine, and after his
head hurts."
"I have Shae in a manse near the Iron Gate. I want you to go to her and keep her safe, whatever may
come."
The huge man smiled, his teeth a yellow crevasse in the hairy wilderness of his beard. "Shagga will fetch
her here."
"Just see that no harm comes to her. Tell her I will come to her as soon as I may. This very night,
perhaps, or on the morrow for a certainty. "
Yet by evenfall the city was still in turmoil, though Brorm reported that the fires were quenched and most
of the roving mobs dispersed. Much as Tyrion yearned for the comfort of Shae's arms, he realized he
would go nowhere that night.
Ser Jacelyn Bywater delivered the butcher's bill as he was supping on a cold capon and brown bread in


the gloom of his solar. Dusk had faded to darkness by then, but when his servants came to light his
candles and start a fire in the hearth, Tyrion had roared at them and sent them running. His mood was as
black as the chamber, and Bywater said nothing to lighten it.
The list of the slain was topped by the High Septon, ripped apart as he squealed to his gods for mercy.
Starving men take a hard view of priests too fat to walk, Tyrion reflected.
Ser Preston's corpse had been overlooked at first; the gold cloaks had been searching for a knight in
white armor, and he had been stabbed and hacked so cruelly that he was red-brown from head to heel.
Ser Aron Santagar had been found in a gutter, his head a red pulp inside a crushed helm.
Lady Tanda's daughter had surrendered her maidenhood to half a hundred shouting men behind a
tanner's shop. The gold cloaks found her wandering naked on Sowbelly Row.
Tyrek was still missing, as was the High Septon's crystal crown. Nine
gold cloaks had been slain, two score wounded. No one had troubled to count how many of the mob
had died.
"I want Tyrek found, alive or dead," Tyrion said curtly when Bywater was done. "He's no more than a
boy. Son to my late uncle Tygett. His father was always kind to me."
"We'll find him. The septon's crown as well."
"The Others can bugger each other with the septon's crown, for all I care. "
"When you named me to command the Watch, you told me you wanted plain truth, always."
"Somehow I have a feeling I am not going to like whatever you're about to say," Tyrion said gloomily.
"We held the city today, my lord, but I make no promises for the morrow. The kettle is close to boiling.
So many thieves and murderers are abroad that no man's house is safe, the bloody flux is spreading in the
stews along Pisswater Bend, there's no food to be had for copper nor silver. Where before you heard
only mutterings from the gutter, now there's open talk of treason in guildhalls and markets."
"Do you need more men?"
"I do not trust half the men I have now. Slynt tripled the size of the Watch, but it takes more than a gold
cloak to make a watchman. There are good men and loyal among the new recruits, but also more brutes,
sots, cravens, and traitors than you'd care to know. They're half-trained and undisciplined, and what
loyalty they have is to their own skins. If it comes to battle, they'll not hold, I fear."
"I never expected them to," said Tyrion. "Once our walls are breeched, we are lost, I've known that
from the start."
"My men are largely drawn from the smallfolk. They walk the same streets, drink in the same winesinks,
spoon down their bowls of brown in the same pot-shops. Your eunuch must have told you, there is small
love for the Lannisters in King's Landing. Many still remember how your lord father sacked the city,
when Aerys opened the gates to him. They whisper that the gods are punishing us for the sins of your
House-for your brother's murder of King Aerys, for the butchery of Rhaegar's children, for the execution


of Eddard Stark and the savagery of Joffrey's justice. Some talk openly of how much better things were
when Robert was king, and hint that times would be better again with Stannis on the throne. in pot-shops
and winesinks and brothels, you hear these thingsand in the barracks and guardhalls as well, I fear."
"They hate my family, is that what you are telling me?"
"Aye . . . and will turn on them, if the chance comes."
"Me as well?"
"Ask your eunuch."
"I'm asking you."
Bywater's deep-set eyes met the dwarf's mismatched ones, and did not blink. "You most of all, my
lord."
"Most of all?" The injustice was like to choke him. "It was Joffrey who told them to eat their dead,
Joffrey who set his dog on them. How could they blame me?"
"His Grace is but a boy. In the streets, it is said that he has evil councillors. The queen has never been
known as a friend to the commons, nor is Lord Varys called the Spider out of love . . . but it is you they
blame most. Your sister and the eunuch were here when times were better under King Robert, but you
were not. They say that you've filled the city with swaggering sellswords and unwashed savages, brutes
who take what they want and follow no laws but their own. They say you exiled Janos Slynt because you
found him too bluff and honest for your liking. They say you threw wise and gentle Pycelle into the
dungeons when he dared raise his voice against you. Some even claim that you mean to seize the Iron
Throne for your own."
"Yes, and I am a monster besides, hideous and misshapen, never forget that." His hand coiled into a fist.
"I've heard enough. We both have work to attend to. Leave me."
Perhaps my lord father was right to despise me all these years, if this is the best I can achieve, Tyrion
thought when he was alone. He stared down at the remains of his supper, his belly roiling at the sight of
the cold greasy capon. Disgusted, he pushed it away, shouted for Pod, and sent the boy running to
summon Varys and Bronn. My most trusted advisers are a eunuch and a sellsword, and my lady's a
whore. What does that say of me~
Bronn complained of the gloom when he arrived, and insisted on a fire in the hearth. It was blazing by
the time Varys made his appearance. "Where have you been?" Tyrion demanded.
"About the king's business, my sweet lord."
"Ah, yes, the king," Tyrion muttered. "My nephew is not fit to sit a privy, let alone the Iron Throne."
Varys shrugged. "An apprentice must be taught his trade."
"Half the 'prentices on Reeking Lane could rule better than this king of yours." Bronn seated himself
across the table and pulled a wing off the capon.
Tyrion had made a practice of ignoring the sellsword's frequent insolences, but tonight he found it galling.


"I don't recall giving you leave to finish my supper."
"You didn't look to be eating it," Bronn said through a mouthful of meat. "City's starving, it's a crime to
waste food. You have any wine?"
Next he'll want me to pour it for him, Tyrion thought darkly. "You go too far," he warned.
"And you never go far enough." Bronn tossed the wingbone to the rushes. "Ever think how easy life
would be if the other one had been born first?" He thrust his fingers inside the capon and tore off a
handful of breast. "The weepy one, Tommen. Seems like he'd do whatever he was told, as a good king
should."
A chill crept down Tyrion's spine as he realized what the sellsword was hinting at. If Tommen was king .
. .
There was only one way Tommen would become king. No, he could not even think it. Joffrey was his
own blood, and Jaime's son as much as Cersei's. "I could have your head off for saying that," he told
Brorm, but the sellsword only laughed.
"Friends," said Varys, "quarreling will not serve us. I beg you both, take heart."
"Whose?" asked Tyrion sourly. He could think of several tempting choices.
CHAPTER 42
DAVOS
Ser Cortnay Penrose wore no armor. He sat a sorrel stallion, his standard-bearer a dapple grey. Above
them flapped Baratheon's crowned stag and the crossed quills of Penrose, white on a russet field. Ser
Cortnay's spade-shaped beard was russet as well, though he'd gone wholly bald on top. If the size and
splendor of the king's party impressed him, it did not show on that weathered face.
They trotted up with much clinking of chain and rattle of plate. Even Davos wore mail, though he could
not have said why; his shoulders and lower back ached from the unaccustomed weight. It made him feel
cumbered and foolish, and he wondered once more why he was here. It is not for me to question the
king's commands, and yet . . .
Every man of the party was of better birth and higher station than Davos Seaworth, and the great lords
glittered in the morning sun. Silvered steel and gold inlay brightened their armor, and their warhelms were
crested in a riot of silken plumes, feathers, and cunningly wrought heraldic beasts with gemstone eyes.
Stannis himself looked out of place in this rich and royal company. Like Davos, the king was plainly
garbed in wool and boiled leather, though the circlet of red gold about his temples lent him a certain
grandeur. Sunlight flashed off its flame-shaped points whenever he moved his head.
This was the closest Davos had come to His Grace in the eight days since Black Betha had joined the
rest of the fleet off Storm's End. He'd


sought an audience within an hour of his arrival, only to be told that the king was occupied. The king was
often occupied, Davos learned from his son Devan, one of the royal squires. Now that Stannis Baratheon
had come into his power, the lordlings buzzed around him like flies round a corpse. He looks half a
corpse too, years older than when I left Dragonstone. Devan said the king scarcely slept of late. "Since
Lord Renly died, he has been troubled by terrible nightmares," the boy had confided to his father.
"Maester's potions do not touch them. Only the Lady Melisandre can soothe him to sleep."
Is that why she shares his pavilion now? Davos wondered. To pray with him? Or does she have another
way to soothe him to sleep? it was an unworthy question, and one he dared not ask, even of his own son.
Devan was a good boy, but he wore the flaming heart proudly on his doublet, and his father had seen him
at the nightfires as dusk fell, beseeching the Lord of Light to bring the dawn. He is the king's squire, he
told himself, it is only to be expected that he would take the king's god.
Davos had almost forgotten how high and thick the walls of Storm's End loomed up close. King Stannis
halted beneath them, a few feet from Ser Cortnay and his standard-bearer. "Ser," he said with stiff
courtesy. He made no move to dismount.
"My lord." That was less courteous, but not unexpected.
"It is customary to grant a king the style Your Grace," announced Lord Florent. A red gold fox poked its
shining snout out from his breastplate through a circle of lapis lazuli flowers. Very tall, very courtly, and
very rich, the Lord of Brightwater Keep had been the first of Renly's bannermen to declare for Stannis,
and the first to renounce his old gods and take up the Lord of Light. Stannis had left his queen on
Dragonstone along with her uncle Axell, but the queen's men were more numerous and powerful than
ever, and Alester Florent was the foremost.
Ser Cortnay Penrose ignored him, preferring to address Stannis. "This is a notable company. The great
lords Estermont, Errol, and Varner. Ser Jon of the green-apple Fossoways and Ser Bryan of the red.
Lord Caron and Ser Guyard of King Renly's Rainbow Guard . . . and the puissant Lord Alester Florent
of Brightwater, to be sure. Is that your Onion Knight I spy to the rear? Well met, Ser Davos. I fear I do
not know the lady."
"I am named Melisandre, ser." She alone came unarmored, but for her flowing red robes. At her throat
the great ruby drank the daylight. "I serve your king, and the Lord of Light."
"I wish you well of them, my lady," Ser Cortnay answered, "but I bow to other gods, and a different
king."
"There is but one true king, and one true god," announced Lord Florent.
"Are we here to dispute theology, my lord? Had I known, I would have brought a septon."
"You know full well why we are here," said Stannis. "You have had a fortnight to consider my offer. You
sent your ravens. No help has come. Nor will it. Storm's End stands alone, and I am out of patience.
One last time, ser, I command you to open your gates, and deliver me that which is mine by rights."
"And the terms?" asked Ser Cortnay.
"Remain as before," said Stannis. "I will pardon you for your treason, as I have pardoned these lords
you see behind me. The men of your garrison will be free to enter my service or to return unmolested to
their homes. You may keep your weapons and as much property as a man can carry. I will require your


horses and pack animals, however."
"And what of Edric Storm?"
"My brother's bastard must be surrendered to me."
"Then my answer is still no, my lord."
The king clenched his jaw. He said nothing.
Melisandre spoke instead. "May the Lord of Light protect you in your darkness, Ser Cortnay."
"May the Others bugger your Lord of Light," Penrose spat back, "and wipe his arse with that rag you
bear."
Lord Alester Florent cleared his throat. "Ser Cortnay, mind your tongue. His Grace means the boy no
harm. The child is his own blood, and mine as well. My niece Delena was the mother, as all men know. If
you will not trust to the king, trust to me. You know me for a man of honor-"
"I know you for a man of ambition," Ser Cortnay broke in. "A man who changes kings and gods the way
I change my boots. As do these other turncloaks I see before me."
An angry clamor went up from the king's men. He is not far wrong, Davos thought. Only a short time
before, the Fossoways, Guyard Mon rigen, and the Lords Caron, Varner, Errol, and Estermont had all
belonged to Renly. They had sat in his pavilion, helped him make his battle plans, plotted how Stannis
might be brought low. And Lord Florent had been with them-he might be Queen Selyse's own uncle, but
that had not kept the Lord of Brightwater from bending his knee to Renly when Renly's star was rising.
Bryce Caron walked his horse forward a few paces, his long rainbowstriped cloak twisting in the wind
off the bay. "No man here is a turncloak, ser. My fealty belongs to Storm's End, and King Stannis is its
rightful lord . . . and our true king. He is the last of House Baratheon, Robert's heir and Renly's."
"If that is so, why is the Knight of Flowers not among you? And where is Mathis Rowan? Randyll Tarly?
Lady Oakheart? Why are they not here in your company, they who loved Renly best? Where is Brienne
of Tarth, I ask you?"
"That one?" Ser Guyard Morrigen laughed harshly. "She ran. As well she might. Hers was the hand that
slew the king."
"A lie," Ser Cortnay said. "I knew Brienne when she was no more than a girl playing at her father's feet
in Evenfall Hall, and I knew her still better when the Evenstar sent her here to Storm's End. She loved
Renly Baratheon from the first moment she laid eyes on him, a blind man could see it."
"To be sure," declared Lord Florent airily, "and she would scarcely be the first maid maddened to
murder by a man who spurned her. Though for my own part, I believe it was Lady Stark who slew the
king. She had journeyed all the way from Riverrun to plead for an alliance, and Renly had refused her.
No doubt she saw him as a danger to her son, and so removed him."
"It was Brienne," insisted Lord Caron. "Ser Emmon Cuy swore as much before he died. You have my
oath on that, Ser Cortnay."


Contempt thickened Ser Cortnay's voice. "And what is that worth? You wear your cloak of many
colors, I see. The one Renly gave you when you swore your oath to protect him. If he is dead, how is it
you are not?" He turned his scorn on Guyard Morrigen. "I might ask the same of you, ser. Guyard the
Green, yes? Of the Rainbow Guard? Sworn to give his own life for his king's? if I had such a cloak, I
would be ashamed to wear it."
Morrigen bristled. "Be glad this is a parley, Penrose, or I would have your tongue for those words."
"And cast it in the same fire where you left your manhood?"
"Enough!" Stannis said. "The Lord of Light willed that my brother die for his treason. Who did the deed
matters not."
"Not to you, perhaps," said Ser Cortnay. "I have heard your proposal, Lord Stannis. Now here is mine."
He pulled off his glove and flung it full in the king's face. "Single combat. Sword, lance, or any weapon
you care to name. Or if you fear to hazard your magic sword and royal skin against an old man, name
you a champion, and I shall do the same." He gave Guyard Morrigen and Bryce Caron a scathing look.
"Either of these pups would do nicely, I should think."
Ser Guyard Morrigen grew dark with fury. "I will take up the gage, if it please the king."
"As would I" Bryce Caron looked to Stannis.
The king ground his teeth. "No."
Ser Cortnay did not seem surprised. "Is it the justice of your cause you doubt, my lord, or the strength of
your arm? Are you afraid I'll piss on your burning sword and put it out?"
"Do you take me for an utter fool, ser?" asked Stannis. "I have twenty thousand men. You are besieged
by land and sea. Why would I choose single combat when my eventual victory is certain?" The king
pointed a finger at him. "I give you fair warning. If you force me to take my castle by storm, you may
expect no mercy. I will hang you for traitors, every one of you."
"As the gods will it. Bring on your storm, my lord-and recall, if you do, the name of this castle." Ser
Cortnay gave a pull on his reins and rode back toward the gate.
Stannis said no word, but turned his horse around and started back toward his camp. The others
followed. "If we storm these walls thousands will die," fretted ancient Lord Estermont, who was the
king's grandfather on his mother's side. "Better to hazard but a single life, surely? Our cause is righteous,
so the gods must surely bless our champion's arms with victory."
God, old man, thought Davos. You forget, we have only one now, Melisandre's Lord of Light.
Ser Jon Fossoway said, "I would gladly take this challenge myself, though I'm not half the swordsman
Lord Caron is, or Ser Guyard. Renly left no notable knights at Storm's End. Garrison duty is for old men
and green boys."
Lord Caron agreed. "An easy victory, to be sure. And what glory, to win Storm's End with a single
stroke!"
Stannis raked them all with a look. "You chatter like magpies, and with less sense. I will have quiet." The


king's eyes fell on Davos. "Ser. Ride with me." He spurred his horse away from his followers. Only
Melisandre kept pace, bearing the great standard of the fiery heart with the crowned stag within. As if it
had been swallowed whole.
Davos saw the looks that passed between the lordlings as he rode past them to join the king. These
were no onion knights, but proud men from houses whose names were old in honor. Somehow he knew
that Renly had never chided them in such a fashion. The youngest of the Baratheons had been born with a
gift for easy courtesy that his brother sadly lacked.
He eased back to a slow trot when his horse came up beside the king's. "Your Grace." Seen at close
hand, Stannis looked worse than Davos had realized from afar. His face had grown haggard, and he had
dark circles under his eyes.
"A smuggler must be a fair judge of men," the king said. "What do you make of this Ser Cortnay
Penrose?"
"A stubborn man," said Davos carefully.
"Hungry for death, I call it. He throws my pardon in my face. Aye, and throws his life away in the
bargain, and the lives of every man inside those walls. Single combat?" The king snorted in derision. "No
doubt he mistook me for Robert."
"More like he was desperate. What other hope does he have?"
"None. The castle will fall. But how to do it quickly?" Stannis brooded on that for a moment. Under the
steady clop-clop of hooves, Davos could hear the faint sound of the king grinding his teeth. "Lord Alester
urges me to bring old Lord Penrose here. Ser Cortnay's father. You know the man, I believe?"
"When I came as your envoy, Lord Penrose received me more courteously than most," Davos said. "He
is an old done man, sire. Sickly and failing."
"Florent would have him fail more visibly. In his son's sight, with a noose about his neck."
it was dangerous to oppose the queen's men, but Davos had vowed always to tell his king the truth. "I
think that would be ill done, my liege. Ser Cortnay will watch his father die before he would ever betray
his trust. It would gain us nothing, and bring dishonor to our cause."
"What dishonor?" Stannis bristled. "Would you have me spare the lives of traitors?"
"You have spared the lives of those behind us."
"Do you scold me for that, smuggler?"
"It is not my place." Davos feared he had said too much.
The king was relentless. "You esteem this Penrose more than you do my lords bannermen. Why?"
"He keeps faith."
"A misplaced faith in a dead usurper."


"Yes," Davos admitted, "but still, he keeps faith."
"As those behind us do not?"
Davos had come too far with Stannis to play coy now. "Last year they were Robert's men. A moon ago
they were Renly's. This morning they are yours. Whose will they be on the morrow?"
And Stannis laughed. A sudden gust, rough and full of scorn. "I told you, Melisandre," he said to the red
woman, "my Onion Knight tells me the truth."
"I see you know him well, Your Grace," the red woman said.
"Davos, I have missed you sorely," the king said. "Aye, I have a tail of traitors, your nose does not
deceive you. My lords bannermen are inconstant even in their treasons. I need them, but you should
know how it sickens me to pardon such as these when I have punished better men for lesser crimes. You
have every right to reproach me, Ser Davos."
"You reproach yourself more than I ever could, Your Grace. You must have these great lords to win
your throne-"
"Fingers and all, it seems." Stannis smiled grimly.
Unthinking, Davos raised his maimed hand to the pouch at his throat, and felt the fingerbones within.
Luck.
The king saw the motion. "Are they still there, Onion Knight? You have not lost them?"
"No.,'
"Why do you keep them? I have often wondered."
"They remind me of what I was. Where I came from. They remind me of your justice, my liege."
"It was justice," Stannis said. "A good act does not wash out the bad, nor a bad act the good. Each
should have its own reward. You were a hero and a smuggler." He glanced behind at Lord Florent and
the others, rainbow knights and turncloaks, who were following at a distance. "These pardoned lords
would do well to reflect on that. Good men and true will fight for Joffrey, wrongly believing him the true
king. A northman might even say the same of Robb Stark. But these lords who flocked to my brother's
banners knew him for a usurper. They turned their backs on their rightful king for no better reason than
dreams of power and glory, and I have marked them for what they are. Pardoned them, yes. Forgiven.
But not forgotten." He fell silent for a moment, brooding on his plans for justice. And then, abruptly, he
said, "What do the smallfolk say of Renly's death? "
"They grieve. Your brother was well loved."
"Fools love a fool," grumbled Stannis, "but I grieve for him as well. For the boy he was, not the man he
grew to be." He was silent for a time, and then he said, "How did the commons take the news of Cersei's
incest?"
"While we were among them they shouted for King Stannis. I cannot speak for what they said once we
had sailed."


"So you do not think they believed?"
"When I was smuggling, I learned that some men believe everything and some nothing. We met both
sorts. And there is another tale being spread as well-"
"Yes." Stannis bit off the word. "Selyse has given me horns, and tied a fool's bells to the end of each. My
daughter fathered by a halfwit jester! A tale as vile as it is absurd. Renly threw it in my teeth when we met
to parley. You would need to be as mad as Patchface to believe such a thing."
"That may be so, my liege . . . but whether they believe the story or no, they delight to tell it." In many
places it had come before them, poisoning the well for their own true tale.
"Robert could piss in a cup and men would call it wine, but I offer them pure cold water and they squint
in suspicion and mutter to each other about how queer it tastes." Stannis ground his teeth. "If someone
said I had magicked myself into a boar to kill Robert, likely they would believe that as well."
"You cannot stop them talking, my liege," Davos said, "but when you take your vengeance on your
brothers' true killers, the realm will know such tales for lies."
Stannis only seemed to half hear him. "I have no doubt that Cersei had a hand in Robert's death. I will
have justice for him. Aye, and for Ned Stark and Jon Arryn as well."
"And for Renly?" The words were out before Davos could stop to consider them.
For a long time the king did not speak. Then, very softly, he said, "I dream of it sometimes. Of Renly's
dying. A green tent, candles, a woman screaming. And blood." Stannis looked down at his hands. "I was
still abed when he died. Your Devan will tell you. He tried to wake me. Dawn was nigh and my lords
were waiting, fretting. I should have been ahorse, armored. I knew Renly would attack at break of day.
Devan says I thrashed and cried out, but what does it matter? It was a dream. I was in my tent when
Renly died, and when I woke my hands were clean."
Ser Davos Seaworth could feel his phantom fingertips start to itch. Something is wrong here, the onetime
smuggler thought. Yet he nodded and said, "I see."
"Renly offered me a peach. At our parley. Mocked me, defied me, threatened me, and offered me a
peach. I thought he was drawing a blade and went for mine own. Was that his purpose, to make me
show fear? Or was it one of his pointless jests? When he spoke of how sweet the peach was, did his
words have some hidden meaning?" The king gave a shake of his head, like a dog shaking a rabbit to
snap its neck. "Only Renly could vex me so with a piece of fruit. He brought his doom on himself with his
treason, but I did love him, Davos. I know that now. I swear, I will go to my grave thinking of my
brother's peach."
By then they were in amongst the camp, riding past the ordered rows of tents, the blowing banners, and
the stacks of shields and spears. The stink of horse dung was heavy in the air, mingled with the
woodsmoke and the smell of cooking meat. Stannis reined up long enough to bark a brusque dismissal to
Lord Florent and the others, commanding them to attend him in his pavilion one hour hence for a council
of war. They bowed their heads and dispersed, while Davos and Melisandre rode to the king's pavilion.
The tent had to be large, since it was there his lords bannermen came to council. Yet there was nothing
grand about it. It was a soldier's tent of


heavy canvas, dyed the dark yellow that sometimes passed for gold. Only the royal banner that
streamed atop the center pole marked it as a king's. That, and the guards without; queen's men leaning on
tall spears, with the badge of the fiery heart sewn over their own.
Grooms came up to help them dismount. One of the guards relieved Melisandre of her cumbersome
standard, driving the staff deep into the soft ground. Devan stood to one side of the door, waiting to lift
the flap for the king. An older squire waited beside him. Stannis took off his crown and handed it to
Devan. "Cold water, cups for two. Davos, attend me. My lady, I shall send for you when I require you."
"As the king commands." Melisandre bowed.
After the brightness of the morning, the interior of the pavilion seemed cool and dim. Stannis seated
himself on a plain wooden camp stool and waved Davos to another. "One day I may make you a lord,
smuggler. If only to irk Celtigar and Florent. You will not thank me, though. It will mean you must suffer
through these councils, and feign interest in the braying of mules."
"Why do you have them, if they serve no purpose?"
"The mules love the sound of their own braying, why else? And I need them to haul my cart. Oh, to be
sure, once in a great while some useful notion is put forth. But not today, I think-ah, here's your son with
our water."
Devan set the tray on the table and filled two clay cups. The king sprinkled a pinch of salt in his cup
before he drank; Davos took his water straight, wishing it were wine. "You were speaking of your
council?"
"Let me tell you how it will go. Lord Velaryon will urge me to storm the castle walls at first light, grapnels
and scaling ladders against arrows and boiling oil. The young mules will think this a splendid notion.
Estermont will favor settling down to starve them out, as Tyrell and Redwyne once tried with me. That
might take a year, but old mules are patient. And Lord Caron and the others who like to kick will want to
take up Ser Cortnay's gauntlet and hazard all upon a single combat. Each one imagining he will be my
champion and win undying fame." The king finished his water. "What would you have me do, smuggler?"
Davos considered a moment before he answered. "Strike for King's Landing at once."
The king snorted. "And leave Storm's End untaken?"
"Ser Cortnay does not have the power to harm you. The Lannisters do. A siege would take too long,
single combat is too chancy, and an assault would cost thousands of lives with no certainty of success.
And there is no need. Once you dethrone Joffrey this castle must come to you with all the rest. It is said
about the camp that Lord Tywin Lannister rushes west to rescue Lannisport from the vengeance of the
northmen . . ."
"You have a passing clever father, Devan," the king told the boy standing by his elbow. "He makes me
wish I had more smugglers in my service. And fewer lords. Though you are wrong in one respect, Davos.
There is a need. If I leave Storm's End untaken in my rear, it will be said I was defeated here. And that I
cannot permit. Men do not love me as they loved my brothers. They follow me because they fear me . . .
and defeat is death to fear. The castle must fall." His jaw ground side to side. "Aye, and quickly. Doran
Martell has called his banners and fortified the mountain passes. His Dornishmen are poised to sweep
down onto the Marches. And Highgarden is far from spent. My brother left the greater part of his power


at Bitterbridge, near sixty thousand foot. I sent my wife's brother Ser Errol with Ser Parmen Crane to
take them under my command, but they have not returned. I fear that Ser Loras Tyrell reached
Bitterbridge before my envoys, and took that host for his own."
"All the more reason to take King's Landing as soon as we may. Salladhor Saan told me-"
"Salladhor Saan thinks only of gold!" Stannis exploded. "His head is full of dreams of the treasure he
fancies lies under the Red Keep, so let us hear no more of Salladhor Saan. The day I need military
counsel from a Lysene brigand is the day I put off my crown and take the black." The king made a fist.
"Are you here to serve me, smuggler? Or to vex me with arguments?"
"I am yours," Davos said.
"Then hear me. Ser Cortnay's lieutenant is cousin to the Fossoways. Lord Meadows, a green boy of
twenty. Should some ill chance strike down Penrose, command of Storm's End would pass to this
stripling, and his cousins believe he would accept my terms and yield up the castle."
"I remember another stripling who was given command of Storm's End. He could not have been much
more than twenty."
"Lord Meadows is not as stonehead stubborn as I was."
"Stubborn or craven, what does it matter? Ser Cortnay Penrose seemed hale and hearty to me."
"So did my brother, the day before his death. The night is dark and full of terrors, Davos."
Davos Seaworth felt the small hairs rising on the back of his neck. "My lord, I do not understand you."
"I do not require your understanding. Only your service. Ser Cortnay will be dead within the day.
Melisandre has seen it in the flames of the future. His death and the manner of it. He will not die in
knightly combat, needless to say." Stannis held out his cup, and Devan filled it again from the flagon. "Her
flames do not lie. She saw Renly's doom as well. On Dragonstone she saw it, and told Selyse. Lord
Velaryon and your friend Salladhor Saan would have had me sail against Joffrey, but
Melisandre told me that if I went to Storm's End, I would win the best part of my brother's power, and
she was right."
"B-but," Davos stammered, "Lord Renly only came here because you had laid siege to the castle. He
was marching toward King's Landing before, against the Lannisters, he would have-"
Stannis shifted in his seat, frowning. "Was, would have, what is that? He did what he did. He came here
with his banners and his peaches, to his doom . . . and it was well for me he did. Melisandre saw another
day in her flames as well. A morrow where Renly rode out of the south in his green armor to smash my
host beneath the walls of King's Landing. Had I met my brother there, it might have been me who died in
place of him."
"Or you might have joined your strength to his to bring down the Lannisters," Davos protested. "Why
not that? If she saw two futures, well . . . both cannot be true."
King Stannis pointed a finger. "There you err, Onion Knight. Some lights cast more than one shadow.
Stand before the nightfire and you'll see for yourself. The flames shift and dance, never still. The shadows


grow tall and short, and every man casts a dozen. Some are fainter than others, that's all. Well, men cast
their shadows across the future as well. One shadow or many. Melisandre sees them all.
"You do not love the woman. I know that, Davos, I am not blind. My lords mislike her too. Estermont
thinks the flaming heart ill-chosen and begs to fight beneath the crowned stag as of old. Ser Guyard says
a woman should not be my standard-bearer. Others whisper that she has no place in my war councils,
that I ought to send her back to Asshai, that it is sinful to keep her in my tent of a night. Aye, they
whisper . . . while she serves."
"Serves how?" Davos asked, dreading the answer.
"As needed." The king looked at him. "And you?"
"I . . ." Davos licked his lips. "I am yours to command. What would you have me do?"
"Nothing you have not done before. Only land a boat beneath the castle, unseen, in the black of night.
Can you do that?"
"Yes. Tonight?"
The king gave a curt nod. "You will need a small boat. Not Black Betha. No one must know what you
do."
Davos wanted to protest. He was a knight now, no longer a smuggler, and he had never been an
assassin. Yet when he opened his mouth, the words would not come. This was Stannis, his just lord, to
whom he owed all he was. And he had his sons to consider as well. Gods be good, what has she done to
him?
"You are quiet," Stannis observed.
And should remain so, Davos told himself, yet instead he said, "My liege, you must have the castle, I see
that now, but surely there are other ways. Cleaner ways. Let Ser Cortnay keep the bastard boy and he
may well yield."
"I must have the boy, Davos. Must. Melisandre has seen that in the flames as well."
Davos groped for some other answer. "Storm's End holds no knight who can match Ser Guyard or Lord
Caron, or any of a hundred others sworn to your service. This single combat . . . could it be that Ser
Cortnay seeks for a way to yield with honor? Even if it means his own life? "
A troubled look crossed the king's face like a passing cloud. "More like he plans some treachery. There
will be no combat of champions. Ser Cortnay was dead before he ever threw that glove. The flames do
not lie, Davos."
Yet they require me to make them true, he thought. It had been a long time since Davos Seaworth felt so
sad.
And so it was that he found himself once more crossing Shipbreaker Bay in the dark of night, steering a
tiny boat with a black sail. The sky was the same, and the sea. The same salt smell was in the air, and the
water chuckling against the hull was just as he remembered it. A thousand flickering campfires burned
around the castle, as the fires of the Tyrells and Redwynes had sixteen years before. But all the rest was


different.
The last time it was life I brought to Storm's End, shaped to look like onions. This time it is death, in the
shape of Melisandre of Asshai. Sixteen years ago, the sails had cracked and snapped with every shift of
wind, until he'd pulled them down and gone on with muffled oars. Even so, his heart had been in his
gullet. The men on the Redwyne galleys had grown lax after so long, however, and they had slipped
through the cordon smooth as black satin. This time, the only ships in sight belonged to Stannis, and the
only danger would come from watchers on the castle walls. Even so, Davos was taut as a bowstring.
Melisandre huddled upon a thwart, lost in the folds of a dark red cloak that covered her from head to
heels, her face a paleness beneath the cowl. Davos loved the water. He slept best when he had a deck
rocking beneath him, and the sighing of the wind in his rigging was a sweeter sound to him than any a
singer could make with his harp strings. Even the sea brought him no comfort tonight, though. "I can smell
the fear on you, ser knight," the red woman said softly.
"Someone once told me the night is dark and full of terrors. And tonight I am no knight. Tonight I am
Davos the smuggler again. Would that you were an onion."
She laughed. "Is it me you fear? Or what we do?"
"What you do. I'll have no part of it."
"Your hand raised the sail. Your hand holds the tiller."
Silent, Davos tended to his course. The shore was a snarl of rocks, so he was taking them well out
across the bay. He would wait for the tide to turn before coming about. Storm's End dwindled behind
them, but the red woman seemed unconcerned. "Are you a good man, Davos Seaworth?" she asked.
Would a good man be doing this? "I am a man," he said. "I am kind to my wife, but I have known other
women. I have tried to be a father to my sons, to help make them a place in this world. Aye, I've broken
laws, but I never felt evil until tonight. I would say my parts are mixed, m'lady. Good and bad."
"A grey man," she said. "Neither white nor black, but partaking of both. Is that what you are, Ser
Davos?"
"What if I am? It seems to me that most men are grey."
"If half of an onion is black with rot, it is a rotten onion. A man is good, or he is evil."
The fires behind them had melted into one vague glow against the black sky, and the land was almost out
of sight. It was time to come about. "Watch your head, my lady." He pushed on the tiller, and the small
boat threw up a curl of black water as she turned. Melisandre leaned under the swinging yard, one hand
on the gunwale, calm as ever. Wood creaked, canvas cracked, and water splashed, so loudly a man
might swear the castle was sure to hear. Davos knew better. The endless crash of wave on rock was the
only sound that ever penetrated the massive seaward walls of Storm's End, and that but faintly.
A rippling wake spread out behind as they swung back toward the shore. "You speak of men and
onions," Davos said to Melisandre. "What of women? Is it not the same for them? Are you good or evil,
my lady?"
That made her chuckle. "Oh, good. I am a knight of sorts myself, sweet ser. A champion of light and


life."
"Yet you mean to kill a man tonight," he said. "As you killed Maester Cressen."
"Your maester poisoned himself. He meant to poison me, but I was protected by a greater power and
he was not."
"And Renly Baratheon? Who was it who killed him?"
Her head turned. Beneath the shadow of the cowl, her eyes burned like pale red candle flames. "Not L"
"Liar." Davos was certain now.
Melisandre laughed again. "You are lost in darkness and confusion, Ser Davos."
"And a good thing." Davos gestured at the distant lights flickering
along the walls of Storm's End. "Feel how cold the wind is? The guards will huddle close to those
torches. A little warmth, a little light, they're a comfort on a night like this. Yet that will blind them, so they
will not see us pass." I hope. "The god of darkness protects us now, my lady. Even you."
The flames of her eyes seemed to burn a little brighter at that. "Speak not that name, ser. Lest you draw
his black eye upon us. He protects no man, I promise you. He is the enemy of all that lives. It is the
torches that hide us, you have said so yourself. Fire. The bright gift of the Lord of Light.,,
"Have it your way."
"His way, rather."
The wind was shifting, Davos could feel it, see it in the way the black canvas rippled. He reached for the
halyards. "Help me bring in the sail. I'll row us the rest of the way."
Together they tied off the sail as the boat rocked beneath them. As Davos unshipped the oars and slid
them into the choppy black water, he said, "Who rowed you to Renly?"
"There was no need," she said. "He was unprotected. But here . . . this Storm's End is an old place.
There are spells woven into the stones. Dark walls that no shadow can pass-ancient, forgotten, yet still in
place."
"Shadow?" Davos felt his flesh prickling. "A shadow is a thing of darkness."
"You are more ignorant than a child, ser knight. There are no shadows in the dark. Shadows are the
servants of light, the children of fire. The brightest flame casts the darkest shadows."
Frowning, Davos hushed her then. They were coming close to shore once more, and voices carried
across the water. He rowed, the faint sound of his oars lost in the rhythm of the waves. The seaward side
of Storm's End perched upon a pale white cliff, the chalky stone sloping up steeply to half again the height
of the massive curtain wall. A mouth yawned in the cliff, and it was that Davos steered for, as he had
sixteen years before. The tunnel opened on a cavern under the castle, where the storm lords of old had
built their landing.


The passage was navigable only during high tide, and was never less than treacherous, but his smuggler's
skills had not deserted him. Davos threaded their way deftly between the jagged rocks until the cave
mouth loomed up before them. He let the waves carry them inside. They crashed around him, slamming
the boat this way and that and soaking them to the skin. A half-seen finger of rock came rushing up out of
the gloom, snarling foam, and Davos barely kept them off it with an oar.
Then they were past, engulfed in darkness, and the waters smoothed.
The little boat slowed and swirled. The sound of their breathing echoed until it seemed to surround them.
Davos had not expected the blackness. The last time, torches had burned all along the tunnel, and the
eyes of starving men had peered down through the murder holes in the ceiling. The portcullis was
somewhere ahead, he knew. Davos used the oars to slow them, and they drifted against it almost gently.
"This is as far as we go, unless you have a man inside to lift the gate for us." His whispers scurried across
the lapping water like a line of mice on soft pink feet.
"Have we passed within the walls?"
"Yes. Beneath. But we can go no farther. The portcullis goes all the way to the bottom. And the bars are
too closely spaced for even a child to squeeze through."
There was no answer but a soft rustling. And then a light bloomed amidst the darkness.
Davos raised a hand to shield his eyes, and his breath caught in his throat. Melisandre had thrown back
her cowl and shrugged out of the smothering robe. Beneath, she was naked, and huge with child. Swollen
breasts hung heavy against her chest, and her belly bulged as if near to bursting. "Gods preserve us," he
whispered, and heard her answering laugh, deep and throaty. Her eyes were hot coals, and the sweat
that dappled her skin seemed to glow with a light of its own. Melisandre shone.
Panting, she squatted and spread her legs. Blood ran down her thighs, black as ink. Her cry might have
been agony or ecstasy or both. And Davos saw the crown of the child's head push its way out of her.
Two arms wriggled free, grasping, black fingers coiling around Melisandre's straining thighs, pushing, until
the whole of the shadow slid out into the world and rose taller than Davos, tall as the tunnel, towering
above the boat. He had only an instant to look at it before it was gone, twisting between the bars of the
portcullis and racing across the surface of the water, but that instant was long enough.
He knew that shadow. As he knew the man who'd cast it.
CHAPTER 43
JON
The call came drifting through the black of night. Jon pushed himself onto an elbow, his hand reaching for
Longclaw by force of habit as the camp began to stir. The horn that wakes the sleepers, he thought.
The long low note lingered at the edge of hearing. The sentries at the ringwall stood still in their footsteps,
breath frosting and heads turned toward the west. As the sound of the horn faded, even the wind ceased


to blow. Men rolled from their blankets and reached for spears and swordbelts, moving quietly, listening.
A horse whickered and was hushed. For a heartbeat it seemed as if the whole forest were holding its
breath. The brothers of the Night's Watch waited for a second blast, praying they should not hear it,
fearing that they would.
When the silence had stretched unbearably long and the men knew at last that the horn would not wind
again, they grinned at one another sheepishly, as if to deny that they had been anxious. Jon Snow fed a
few sticks to the fire, buckled on his swordbelt, pulled on his boots, shook the dirt and dew from the
cloak, and fastened it around his shoulders. The flames blazed up beside him, welcome heat beating
against his face as he dressed. He could hear the Lord Commander moving inside the tent. After a
moment Mormont lifted the flap. "One blast?" On his shoulder, his raven sat fluffed and silent, looking
miserable.
"One, my lord," Jon agreed. "Brothers returning."
Mormont moved to the fire. "The Halfhand. And past time." He had
grown more restive every day they waited; much longer and he would have been fit to whelp cubs. "See
that there's hot food for the men and fodder for the horses. I'll see Qhorin at once."
"I'll bring him, my lord." The men from the Shadow Tower had been expected days ago. When they had
not appeared, the brothers had begun to wonder. Jon had heard gloomy mutterings around the cookfire,
and not just from Dolorous Edd. Ser Ottyn Wythers was for retreating to Castle Black as soon as
possible. Ser Mallador Locke would strike for the Shadow Tower, hoping to pick up Qhorin's trail and
learn what had befallen him. And Thoren Smallwood wanted to push on into the mountains. "Mance
Rayder knows he must battle the Watch," Thoren had declared, "but he will never look for us so far
north. If we ride up the Milkwater, we can take him unawares and cut his host to ribbons before he
knows we are on him."
"The numbers would be greatly against us," Ser Ottyn had objected. "Craster said he was gathering a
great host. Many thousands. Without Qhorin, we are only two hundred."
"Send two hundred wolves against ten thousand sheep, ser, and see what happens," said Smallwood
confidently.
"There are goats among these sheep, Thoren," warned Jarman Buckwell. "Aye, and maybe a few lions.
Rattleshirt, Harma the Dogshead, Alfyn Crowkiller . . ."
"I know them as well as you do, Buckwell," Thoren Smallwood snapped back. "And I mean to have
their heads, every one. These are wildlings. No soldiers. A few hundred heroes, drunk most like, amidst
a great horde of women, children, and thralls. We will sweep over them and send them howling back to
their hovels."
They had argued for many hours, and reached no agreement. The Old Bear was too stubborn to retreat,
but neither would he rush headlong up the Milkwater, seeking battle. In the end, nothing had been
decided but to wait a few more days for the men from the Shadow Tower, and talk again if they did not
appear.
And now they had, which meant that the decision could be delayed no longer. Jon was glad of that
much, at least. If they must battle Mance Rayder, let it be soon.


He found Dolorous Edd at the fire, complaining about how difficult it was for him to sleep when people
insisted on blowing horns in the woods. Jon gave him something new to complain about. Together they
woke Hake, who received the Lord Commander's orders with a stream of curses, but got up all the
same and soon had a dozen brothers cutting roots for a soup.
Sam came puffing up as Jon crossed the camp. Under the black hood
his face was as pale and round as the moon. "I heard the horn. Has your uncle come back?"
"It's only the men from the Shadow Tower." It was growing harder to cling to the hope of Benjen Stark's
safe return. The cloak he had found beneath the Fist could well have belonged to his uncle or one of his
men, even the Old Bear admitted as much, though why they would have buried it there, wrapped around
the cache of dragonglass, no one could say. "Sam, I have to go."
At the ringwall, he found the guards sliding spikes from the half-frozen earth to make an opening. It was
not long until the first of the brothers from the Shadow Tower began wending their way up the slope. All
in leather and fur they were, with here and there a bit of steel or bronze; heavy beards covered hard lean
faces, and made them look as shaggy as their garrons. Jon was surprised to see some of them were
riding two to a horse. When he looked more closely, it was plain that many of them were wounded.
There has been trouble on the way.
Jon knew Qhorin Halfhand the instant he saw him, though they had never met. The big ranger was half a
legend in the Watch; a man of slow words and swift action, tall and straight as a spear, long-limbed and
solemn. Unlike his men, he was clean-shaven. His hair fell from beneath his helm in a heavy braid touched
with hoarfrost, and the blacks he wore were so faded they might have been greys. Only thumb and
forefinger remained on the hand that held the reins; the other fingers had been sheared off catching a
wildling's axe that would otherwise have split his skull. It was told that he had thrust his maimed fist into
the face of the axeman so the blood spurted into his eyes, and slew him while he was blind. Since that
day, the wildlings beyond the Wall had known no foe more implacable.
Jon hailed him. "Lord Commander Mormont would see you at once. I'll show you to his tent."
Qhorin swung down from his saddle. "My men are hungry, and our horses require tending."
"They'll all be seen to."
The ranger gave his horse into the care of one of his men and followed. "You are Jon Snow. You have
your father's look."
"Did you know him, my lord?"
"I am no lordling. Only a brother of the Night's Watch. I knew Lord Eddard, yes. And his father before
him."
Jon had to hurry his steps to keep up with Qhorin's long strides. "Lord Rickard died before I was born."
"He was a friend to the Watch." Qhorin glanced behind. "It is said that a direwolf runs with you."
"Ghost should be back by dawn. He hunts at night."
They found Dolorous Edd frying a rasher of bacon and boiling a dozen eggs in a kettle over the Old


Bear's cookfire. Mormont sat in his woodand-leather camp chair. "I had begun to fear for you. Did you
meet with trouble? "
"We met with Alfyn Crowkiller. Mance had sent him to scout along the Wall, and we chanced on him
returning." Qhorin removed his helm. "Alfyn will trouble the realm no longer, but some of his company
escaped us. We hunted down as many as we could, but it may be that a few will win back to the
mountains."
"And the cost?"
"Four brothers dead. A dozen wounded. A third as many as the foe. And we took captives. One died
quickly from his wounds, but the other lived long enough to be questioned."
"Best talk of this inside. Jon will fetch you a horn of ale. Or would you prefer hot spiced wine?"
"Boiled water will suffice. An egg and a bite of bacon."
"As you wish." Mormont lifted the flap of the tent and Qhorin Halfhand stooped and stepped through.
Edd stood over the kettle swishing the eggs about with a spoon. "I envy those eggs," he said. "I could do
with a bit of boiling about now. If the kettle were larger, I might jump in. Though I would sooner it were
wine than water. There are worse ways to die than warm and drunk. I knew a brother drowned himself
in wine once. It was a poor vintage, though, and his corpse did not improve it."
"You drank the wine?"
"It's an awful thing to find a brother dead. You'd have need of a drink as well, Lord Snow." Edd stirred
the kettle and added a pinch more nutmeg.
Restless, Jon squatted by the fire and poked at it with a stick. He could hear the Old Bear's voice inside
the tent, punctuated by the raven's squawks and Qhorin Halfhand's quieter tones, but he could not make
out the words. Alfyn Crowkiller dead, that's good. He was one of the bloodiest of the wildling raiders,
taking his name from the black brothers he'd slain. So why does Qhorin sound so grave, after such a
victory?
Jon had hoped that the arrival of men from the Shadow Tower would lift the spirits in the camp. Only
last night, he was coming back through the dark from a piss when he heard five or six men talking in low
voices around the embers of a fire. When he heard Chett muttering that it was past time they turned
back, Jon stopped to listen. "It's an old man's folly, this ranging," he heard. "We'll find nothing but our
graves in them mountains."
"There's giants in the Frostfangs, and wargs, and worse things," said Lark the Sisterman.
"I'll not be going there, I promise you."
"The Old Bear's not like to give you a choice."
"Might be we won't give him one," said Chett.
just then one of the dogs had raised his head and growled, and he had to move away quickly, before he
was seen. I was not meant to hear that, he thought. He considered taking the tale to Mormont, but he


could not bring himself to inform on his brothers, even brothers such as Chett and the Sisterman. It was
just empty talk, he told himself. They are cold and afraid, we all are. It was hard waiting here, perched on
the stony summit above the forest, wondering what the morrow might bring. The unseen enemy is always
the most fearsome.
Jon slid his new dagger from its sheath and studied the flames as they played against the shiny black
glass. He had fashioned the wooden hilt himself, and wound hempen twine around it to make a grip.
Ugly, but it served. Dolorous Edd opined that glass knives were about as useful as nipples on a knight's
breastplate, but Jon was not so certain. The dragonglass blade was sharper than steel, albeit far more
brittle.
It must have been buried for a reason.
He had made a dagger for Grenn as well, and another for the Lord Commander. The warhorn he had
given to Sam. On closer examination the horn had proved cracked, and even after he had cleaned all the
dirt out, Jon had been unable to get any sound from it. The rim was chipped as well, but Sam liked old
things, even worthless old things. "Make a drinking horn out of it," Jon told him, "and every time you take
a drink you'll remember how you ranged beyond the Wall, all the way to the Fist of the First Men." He
gave Sam a spearhead and a dozen arrowheads as well, and passed the rest out among his other friends
for luck.
The Old Bear had seemed pleased by the dagger, but he preferred a steel knife at his belt, Jon had
noticed. Mormont could offer no answers as to who might have buried the cloak or what it might mean.
Perhaps Qhorin will know The Halfhand had ventured deeper into the wild than any other living man.
"You want to serve, or shall I?"
Jon sheathed the dagger. "I'll do it." He wanted to hear what they were saying.
Edd cut three thick slices off a stale round of oat bread, stacked them on a wooden platter, covered
them with bacon and bacon drippings, and filled a bowl with hard-cooked eggs. Jon took the bowl in
one hand and the platter in the other and backed into the Lord Commander's tent,
Qhorin was seated cross-legged on the floor, his spine as straight as a
spear. Candlelight flickered against the hard flat planes of his cheeks as he spoke. ". . . Rattleshirt, the
Weeping Man, and every other chief great and small," he was saying. "They have wargs as well, and
mammoths, and more strength than we would have dreamed. Or so he claimed. I will not swear as to the
truth of it. Ebben believes the man was telling us tales to make his life last a little longer."
"True or false, the Wall must be warned," the Old Bear said as Jon placed the platter between them.
"And the king."
"Which king?"
"All of them. The true and the false alike. If they would claim the realm, let them defend it."
The Halfhand helped himself to an egg and cracked it on the edge of the bowl. "These kings will do what
they will," he said, peeling away the shell. "Likely it will be little enough. The best hope is Winterfell. The
Starks must rally the north."


"Yes. To be sure." The Old Bear unrolled a map, frowned at it, tossed it aside, opened another. He was
pondering where the hammer would fall, Jon could see it. The Watch had once manned seventeen castles
along the hundred leagues of the Wall, but they had been abandoned one by one as the brotherhood
dwindled. Only three were now garrisoned, a fact that Mance Rayder knew as well as they did. "Ser
Alliser Thorne will bring back fresh levies from King's Landing, we can hope. If we man Greyguard from
the Shadow Tower and the Long Barrow from Eastwatch . . ."
"Greyguard has largely collapsed. Stonedoor would serve better, if the men could be found. Icemark
and Deep Lake as well, mayhaps. With daily patrols along the battlements between."
"Patrols, aye. Twice a day, if we can. The Wall itself is a formidable obstacle. Undefended, it cannot
stop them, yet it will delay them. The larger the host, the longer they'll require. From the emptiness
they've left behind, they must mean to bring their women with them. Their young as well, and beasts . . .
have you ever seen a goat climb a ladder? A rope? They will need to build a stair, or a great ramp . . . it
will take a moon's turn at the least, perhaps longer. Mance will know his best chance is to pass beneath
the Wall. Through a gate, or
"A breach."
Mormont's head came up sharply. "What?"
"They do not plan to climb the Wall nor to burrow beneath it, my lord. They plan to break it."
"The Wall is seven hundred feet high, and so thick at the base that it would take a hundred men a year to
cut through it with picks and axes."
"Even so."
Mormont plucked at his beard, frowning. "How?"
"How else? Sorcery." Qhorin bit the egg in half. "Why else would Mance choose to gather his strength in
the Frostfangs? Bleak and hard they are, and a long weary march from the Wall."
"I'd hoped he chose the mountains to hide his muster from the eyes of my rangers."
"Perhaps," said Qhorin, finishing the egg, "but there is more, I think. He is seeking something in the high
cold places. He is searching for something he needs."
"Something?" Mormont's raven lifted its head and screamed. The sound was sharp as a knife in the
closeness of the tent.
"Some power. What it is, our captive could not say. He was questioned perhaps too sharply, and died
with much unsaid. I doubt he knew in any case."
Jon could hear the wind outside. It made a high thin sound as it shivered through the stones of the
ringwall and tugged at the tent ropes. Mormont rubbed his mouth thoughtfully. "Some power," he
repeated. "I must know."
"Then you must send scouts into the mountains."
"I am loath to risk more men."


"We can only die. Why else do we don these black cloaks, but to die in defense of the realm? I would
send fifteen men, in three parties of five. One to probe the Milkwater, one the Skirling Pass, one to climb
the Giant's Stair. Jarman Buckwell, Thoren Smallwood, and myself to command. To learn what waits in
those mountains."
"Waits," the raven cried. "Waits."
Lord Commander Mormont sighed deep in his chest. "I see no other choice," he conceded, "but if you
do not return . . ."
"Someone will come down out of the Frostfangs, my lord," the ranger said. "If us, all well and good. If
not, it will be Mance Rayder, and you sit square in his path. He cannot march south and leave you
behind, to follow and harry his rear. He must attack. This is a strong place."
"Not that strong," said Mormont.
"Belike we shall all die, then. Our dying will buy time for our brothers on the Wall. Time to garrison the
empty castles and freeze shut the gates, time to summon lords and kings to their aid, time to hone their
axes and repair their catapults. Our lives will be coin well spent."
"Die," the raven muttered, pacing along Mormont's shoulders. "Die, die, die, die." The old Bear sat
slumped and silent, as if the burden of speech had grown too heavy for him to bear. But at last he said,
"May the gods forgive me. Choose your men."
Qhorin Halfhand turned his head. His eyes met Jon's, and held them for a long moment. "Very well. I
choose Jon Snow."
Mormont blinked. "He is hardly more than a boy. And my steward besides. Not even a ranger."
"Tollett can care for you as well, my lord." Qhorin lifted his maimed, two-fingered hand. "The old gods
are still strong beyond the Wall. The gods of the First Men . . . and the Starks."
Mormont looked at Jon. "What is your will in this?"
"To go," he said at once.
The old man smiled sadly. "I thought it might be."
Dawn had broken when Jon stepped from the tent beside Qhorin Halfhand. The wind swirled around
them, stirring their black cloaks and sending a scatter of red cinders flying from the fire.
"We ride at noon," the ranger told him. "Best find that wolf of yours."
CHAPTER 44
TYRION


The queen intends to send Prince Tornmen away." They knelt alone in the hushed dimness of the sept,
surrounded by shadows and flickering candles, but even so Lancel kept his voice low. "Lord Gyles will
take him to Rosby, and conceal him there in the guise of a page. They plan to darken his hair and tell
everyone that he is the son of a hedge knight."
"Is it the mob she fears? Or me?"
"Both," said Lancel.
"Ah." Tyrion had known nothing of this ploy. Had Varys's little birds failed him for once? Even spiders
must nod, he supposed . . . or was the eunuch playing a deeper and more subtle game than he knew?
"You have my thanks, ser."
"Will you grant me the boon I asked of you?"
"Perhaps." Lancel wanted his own command in the next battle. A splendid way to die before he finished
growing that mustache, but young knights always think themselves invincible.
Tyrion lingered after his cousin had slipped away. At the Warrior's altar, he used one candle to light
another. Watch over my brother, you bloody bastard, he's one of yours. He lit a second candle to the
Stranger, for himself.
That night, when the Red Keep was dark, Bronn arrived to find him sealing a letter. "Take this to Ser
Jacelyn Bywater." The dwarf dribbled hot golden wax down onto the parchment.
"What does it say?" Bronn could not read, so he asked impudent questions.
"That he's to take fifty of his best swords and scout the roseroad." Tyrion pressed his seal into the soft
wax.
"Stannis is more like to come up the kingsroad."
"Oh, I know. Tell Bywater to disregard what's in the letter and take his men north. He's to lay a trap
along the Rosby road. Lord Gyles will depart for his castle in a day or two, with a dozen men-at-arms,
some servants, and my nephew. Prince Tommen may be dressed as a page."
"You want the boy brought back, is that it?"
"No. I want him taken on to the castle." Removing the boy from the city was one of his sister's better
notions, Tyrion had decided. At Rosby, Tornmen would be safe from the mob, and keeping him apart
from his brother also made things more difficult for Stannis; even if he took King's Landing and executed
Joffrey, he'd still have a Lannister claimant to contend with. "Lord Gyles is too sickly to run and too
craven to fight. He'll command his castellan to open the gates. Once inside the walls, Bywater is to expel
the garrison and hold Tornmen there safe. Ask him how he likes the sound of Lord Bywater."
"Lord Bronn would sound better. I could grab the boy for you just as well. I'll dandle him on my knee
and sing him nursery songs if there's a lordship in it."
"I need you here," said Tyrion. And I don't trust you with my nephew Should any ill befall Joffrey, the
Lannister claim to the Iron Throne would rest on Tommen's young shoulders. Ser Jacelyn's gold cloaks


would defend the boy; Bronn's sellswords were more apt to sell him to his enemies.
"What should the new lord do with the old one?"
"Whatever he pleases, so long as he remembers to feed him. I don't want him dying." Tyrion pushed
away from the table. "My sister will send one of the Kingsguard with the prince."
Bronn was not concerned. "The Hound is Joffrey's dog, he won't leave him. Ironhand's gold cloaks
should be able to handle the others easy enough."
"If it comes to killing, tell Ser Jacelyn I won't have it done in front of Tommen." Tyrion donned a heavy
cloak of dark brown wool. "My nephew is tenderhearted."
"Are you certain he's a Lannister?"
"I'm certain of nothing but winter and battle," he said. "Come. I'm riding with you part of the way."
"Chataya's?"
"You know me too well."
They left through a postern gate in the north wall. Tyrion put his heels into his horse and clattered down
Shadowblack Lane. A few furtive shapes darted into alleys at the sound of hoofbeats on the cobbles, but
no one dared accost them. The council had extended his curfew; it was death to be taken on the streets
after the evenfall bells had sung. The measure had restored a degree of peace to King's Landing and
quartered the number of corpses found in the alleys of a morning, yet Varys said the people cursed him
for it. They should be thankful they have the breath to curse. A pair of gold cloaks confronted them as
they were making their way along Coppersmith's Wynd, but when they realized whom they'd challenged
they begged the Hand's pardons and waved them on. Brorm turned south for the Mud Gate and they
parted company.
Tyrion rode on toward Chataya's, but suddenly his patience deserted him. He twisted in the saddle,
scanning the street behind. There were no signs of followers. Every window was dark or tightly
shuttered. He heard nothing but the wind swirling down the alleys. If Cersei has someone stalking me
tonight, he must be disguised as a rat. "Bugger it all," he muttered. He was sick of caution. Wheeling his
horse around, he dug in his spurs. If anyone's after me, we'll see how well they ride. He flew through the
moonlight streets, clattering over cobbles, darting down narrow alleys and up twisty wynds, racing to his
love.
As he hammered on the gate he heard music wafting faintly over the spiked stone walls. One of the
Ibbenese ushered him inside. Tyrion gave the man his horse and said, "Who is that?" The
diamond-shaped panes of the longhall windows shone with yellow light, and he could hear a man singing.
The Ibbenese shrugged. "Fatbelly singer."
The sound swelled as he walked from the stable to the house. Tyrion had never been fond of singers,
and he liked this one even less than the run of the breed, sight unseen. When he pushed open the door,
the man broke off. "My lord Hand." He knelt, balding and kettle-bellied, murmuring, "An honor, an
honor."
"M'lord." Shae smiled at the sight of him. He liked that smile, the quick unthinking way it came to her


pretty face. The girl wore her purple silk, belted with a cloth-of-silver sash. The colors favored her dark
hair and the smooth cream of her skin.
"Sweetling," he called her. "And who is this?"
The singer raised his eyes. "I am called Symon Silver Tongue, my lord. A player, a singer, a taleteller-"
"And a great fool," Tyrion finished. "What did you call me, when I entered? "
"Call? I only . . ." The silver in Symon's tongue seemed to have turned to lead. "My lord Hand, I said, an
honor . . ."
"A wiser man would have pretended not to recognize me. Not that I would have been fooled, but you
ought to have tried. What am I to do with you now? You know of my sweet Shae, you know where she
dwells, you know that I visit by night alone."
"I swear, I'll tell no one . . ."
"On that much we agree. Good night to you." Tyrion led Shae up the stairs.
"My singer may never sing again now," she teased. "You've scared the voice from him."
"A little fear will help him reach those high notes."
She closed the door to their bedchamber. "You won't hurt him, will you?" She lit a scented candle and
knelt to pull off his boots. "His songs cheer me on the nights you don't come."
"Would that I could come every night," he said as she rubbed his bare feet. "How well does he sing?"
"Better than some. Not so good as others."
Tyrion opened her robe and buried his face between her breasts. She always smelled clean to him, even
in this reeking sty of a city. "Keep him if you like, but keep him close. I won't have him wandering the city
spreading tales in pot-shops."
"He won't-" she started.
Tyrion covered her mouth with his own. He'd had talk enough; he needed the sweet simplicity of the
pleasure he found between Shae's thighs. Here, at least, he was welcome, wanted.
Afterward, he eased his arm out from under her head, slipped on his tunic, and went down to the
garden. A half-moon silvered the leaves of the fruit trees and shone on the surface of the stone bathing
pond. Tyrion seated himself beside the water. Somewhere off to his right a cricket was chirping, a
curiously homey sound. It is peaceful here, he thought, but for how long?
A whiff of something rank made him turn his head. Shae stood in the door behind him, dressed in the
silvery robe he'd given her. I loved a maid as white as winter, with moonglow in her hair. Behind her
stood one of the begging brothers, a portly man in filthy patched robes, his bare feet crusty with dirt, a
bowl hung about his neck on a leather thong where a septon would have worn a crystal. The smell of him
would have gagged a rat.


"Lord Varys has come to see you," Shae announced.
The begging brother blinked at her, astonished. Tyrion laughed. "To be sure. How is it you knew him
when I did not?"
She shrugged. "It's still him. Only dressed different."
"A different look, a different smell, a different way of walking," said Tyrion. "Most men would be
deceived."
"And most women, maybe. But not whores. A whore learns to see the man, not his garb, or she turns up
dead in an alley."
Varys looked pained, and not because of the false scabs on his feet. Tyrion chuckled. "Shae, would you
bring us some wine?" He might need a drink. Whatever brought the eunuch here in the dead of night was
not like to be good.
"I almost fear to tell you why I've come, my lord," Varys said when Shae had left them. "I bring dire
tidings."
"You ought to dress in black feathers, Varys, you're as bad an omen as any raven." Awkwardly, Tyrion
pushed to his feet, half afraid to ask the next question. "Is it Jaime?" ff they have harmed him, nothing will
save them.
"No, my lord. A different matter. Ser Cortnay Penrose is dead. Storm's End has opened its gates to
Stannis Baratheon."
Dismay drove all other thoughts from Tyrion's mind. When Shae returned with the wine, he took one sip
and flung the cup away to explode against the side of the house. She raised a hand to shield herself from
the shards as the wine ran down the stones in long fingers, black in the moonlight. "Damn him!" Tyrion
said.
Varys smiled, showing a mouth full of rotted teeth. "Who, my lord? Ser Cortnay or Lord Stannis?"
"Both of them." Storm's End was strong, it should have been able to hold out for half a year or more . . .
time enough for his father to finish with Robb Stark. "How did this happen?"
Varys glanced at Shae. "My lord, must we trouble your sweet lady's sleep with such grim and bloody
talk?"
"A lady might be afraid," said Shae, "but I'm not."
"You should be," Tyrion told her. "With Storm's End fallen, Stannis will soon turn his attention toward
King's Landing." He regretted flinging away that wine now. "Lord Varys, give us a moment, and I'll ride
back to the castle with you."
"I shall wait in the stables." He bowed and stomped off.
Tyrion drew Shae down beside him. "You are not safe here."
"I have my walls, and the guards you gave me."


"Sellswords," Tyrion said. "They like my gold well enough, but will they die for it? As for these walls, a
man could stand on another's shoulders and be over in a heartbeat. A manse much like this one was
burned during the riots. They killed the goldsmith who owned it for the crime of having a full larder, just
as they tore the High Septon to pieces, raped Lollys half a hundred times, and smashed Ser Aron's skull
in. What do you think they would do if they got their hands on the Hand's lady?"
"The Hand's whore, you mean?" She looked at him with those big bold eyes of hers. "Though I would
be your lady, m'lord. Id dress in all the beautiful things you gave me, in satin and samite and
cloth-of-gold, and I'd wear your jewels and hold your hand and sit by you at feasts. I could give you
sons, I know I could . . . and I vow Id never shame you."
My love for you shames me enough. "A sweet dream, Shae. Now put it aside, I beg you. It can never
be."
"Because of the queen? I'm not afraid of her either."
"I am."
"Then kill her and be done with it. It's not as if there was any love between you."
Tyrion sighed. "She's my sister. The man who kills his own blood is cursed forever in the sight of gods
and men. Moreover, whatever you and I may think of Cersei, my father and brother hold her dear. I can
scheme with any man in the Seven Kingdoms, but the gods have not equipped me to face Jaime with
swords in hand."
"The Young Wolf and Lord Stannis have swords and they don't scare you."
How little you know, sweetling. "Against them I have all the power of House Lannister. Against Jaime or
my father, I have no more than a twisted back and a pair of stunted legs."
"You have me." Shae kissed him, her arms sliding around his neck as she pressed her body to his.
The kiss aroused him, as her kisses always did, but this time Tyrion gently disentangled himself. "Not
now. Sweetling, I have . . . well, call it the seed of a plan. I think I might be able to bring you into the
castle kitchens."
Shae's face went still. "The kitchens?"
"Yes. If I act through Varys, no one will be the wiser."
She giggled. "M'lord, I'd poison you. Every man who's tasted my cooking has told me what a good
whore I am."
"The Red Keep has sufficient cooks. Butchers and bakers too. You'd need to pose as a scullion."
"A pot girl," she said, "in scratchy brown roughspun. Is that how m'lord wants to see me?"
"M'lord wants to see you alive," Tyrion said. "You can scarcely scour pots in silk and velvet."
"Has m'lord grown tired of me?" She reached a hand under his tunic and found his cock. In two quick


strokes she had it hard. "He still wants me." She laughed. "Would you like to fuck your kitchen wench,
m'lord? You can dust me with flour and suck gravy off my titties if you . . ."
"Stop it." The way she was acting reminded him of Dancy, who had
tried so hard to win her wager. He yanked her hand away to keep her from further mischief. "This is not
the time for bed sport, Shae. Your life may be at stake."
Her grin was gone. "If I've displeased ni'lord, I never meant it, only . . . couldn't you just give me more
guards?"
Tyrion breathed a deep sigh. Remember how young she is, he told himself. He took her hand. "Your
gems can be replaced, and new gowns can be sewn twice as lovely as the old. To me, you're the most
precious thing within these walls. The Red Keep is not safe either, but it's a deal safer than here. I want
you there."
"In the kitchens." Her voice was flat. "Scouring pots."
"For a short while."
"My father made me his kitchen wench," she said, her mouth twisting. "That was why I ran off."
"You told me you ran off because your father made you his whore," he reminded her.
"That too. I didn't like scouring his pots no more than I liked his cock in me." She tossed her head. "Why
can't you keep me in your tower? Half the lords at court keep bedwarmers."
"I was expressly forbidden to take you to court."
"By your stupid father." Shae pouted. "You're old enough to keep all the whores you want. Does he
take you for a beardless boy? What could he do, spank you?"
He slapped her. Not hard, but hard enough. "Damn you," he said. "Damn you. Never mock me. Not
you."
For a moment Shae did not speak. The only sound was the cricket, chirping, chirping. "Beg pardon,
m'lord," she said at last, in a heavy wooden voice. "I never meant to be impudent."
And I never meant to strike you. Gods be good, am I turning into Cersei? "That was ill done," he said.
"On both our parts. Shae, you do not understand." Words he had never meant to speak came tumbling
out of him like mummers from a hollow horse. "When I was thirteen, I wed a crofter's daughter. Or so I
thought her. I was blind with love for her, and thought she felt the same for me, but my father rubbed my
face in the truth. My bride was a whore Jaime had hired to give me my first taste of manhood." And I
believed all of it, fool that I was. "To drive the lesson home, Lord Tywin gave my wife to a barracks of
his guardsmen to use as they pleased, and commanded me to watch." And to take her one last time, after
the rest were done. one last time, with no trace of love or tenderness remaining. "So you will remember
her as she truly is," he said, and I should have defied him, but my cock betrayed me, and I did
as I was bid. "After he was done with her, my father had the marriage undone. It was as if we had never
been wed, the septons said." He squeezed her hand. "Please, let's have no more talk of the Tower of the
Hand. You will be in the kitchens only a little while. Once we're done with Stannis, you'll have another


manse, and silks as soft as your hands."
Shae's eyes had grown large but he could not read what lay behind them. "My hands won't be soft if I
clean ovens and scrape plates all day. Will you still want them touching you when they're all red and raw
and cracked from hot water and lye soap?"
"More than ever," he said. "When I look at them, they'll remind me how brave you were."
He could not say if she believed him. She lowered her eyes. "I am yours to command, m'lord."
It was as much acceptance as she could give tonight, he saw that plain enough. He kissed her cheek
where he'd struck her, to take some sting from the blow. "I will send for you."
Varys was waiting in the stables, as promised. His horse looked spavined and half-dead. Tyrion
mounted up; one of the sellswords opened the gates. They rode out in silence. Why did I tell her about
7~sha, gods help me? he asked himself, suddenly afraid. There were some secrets that should never be
spoken, some shames a man should take to his grave. What did he want from her, forgiveness? The way
she had looked at him, what did that mean? Did she hate the thought of scouring pots that much, or was
it his confession? How could I tell her that and still think she would love me? part of him said, and
another part mocked, saying, Fool of a dwarf, it is only the gold and jewels the whore loves.
His scarred elbow was throbbing, jarred every time the horse set down a hoof. Sometimes he could
almost fancy he heard the bones grinding together inside. Perhaps he should see a maester, get some
potion for the pain . . . but since Pycelle had revealed himself for what he was, Tyrion Lannister
mistrusted the maesters. The gods only knew who they were conspiring with, or what they had mixed in
those potions they gave you. "Varys," he said. "I need to bring Shae into the castle without Cersei
becoming aware." Briefly, he sketched out his kitchen scheme.
When he was done, the eunuch made a little clucking sound. "I will do as my lord commands, of course .
. . but I must warn you, the kitchens are full of eyes and ears. Even if the girl falls under no particular
suspicion, she will be subject to a thousand questions. Where was she born? Who were her parents?
How did she come to King's Landing? The truth will never do, so she must lie . . . and lie, and lie." He
glanced down at Tyrion. "And such a pretty young kitchen wench will incite lust as well as curiosity. She
will be touched, pinched, patted, and fondled.
Pot boys will crawl under her blankets of a night. Some lonely cook may seek to wed her. Bakers will
knead her breasts with floured hands."
"I'd sooner have her fondled than stabbed," said Tyrion.
Varys rode on a few paces and said, "It might be that there is another way. As it happens, the
maidservant who attends Lady Tanda's daughter has been filching her jewels. Were I to inform Lady
Tanda, she would be forced to dismiss the girl at once. And the daughter would require a new
maidservant."
"I see." This had possibilities, Tyrion saw at once. A lady's bedmaid wore finer garb than a scullion, and
often even a jewel or two. Shae should be pleased by that. And Cersei thought Lady Tanda tedious and
hysterical, and Lollys a bovine lackwit. She was not like to pay them any friendly calls.
"Lollys is timid and trusting," Varys said. "She will accept any tale she is told. Since the mob took her
maidenhood she is afraid to leave her chambers, so Shae will be out of sight . . . but conveniently close,


should you have need of comfort."
"The Tower of the Hand is watched, you know as well as L Cersei would be certain to grow curious if
Lollys's bedmaid starting paying me calls."
"I might be able to slip the child into your bedchamber unseen. Chataya's is not the only house to boast a
hidden door."
"A secret access? To my chambers?" Tyrion was more annoyed than surprised. Why else would
Maegor the Cruel have ordered death for all the builders who had worked on his castle, except to
preserve such secrets? "Yes, I suppose there would be. Where will I find the door? In my solar? My
bedchamber?"
"My friend, you would not force me to reveal all my little secrets, would you?"
"Henceforth think of them as our little secrets, Varys." Tyrion glanced up at the eunuch in his smelly
mummer's garb. "Assuming you are on my side . . ."
"Can you doubt it?"
"Why no, I trust you implicitly." A bitter laugh echoed off the shuttered windows. "I trust you like one of
my own blood, in truth. Now tell me how Cortnay Penrose died."
"It is said that he threw himself from a tower."
"Threw himself? No, I will not believe that!"
"His guards saw no man enter his chambers, nor did they find any within afterward."
"Then the killer entered earlier and hid under the bed," Tyrion suggested, "or he climbed down from the
roof on a rope. Perhaps the guards are lying. Who's to say they did not do the thing themselves?"
"Doubtless you are right, my lord."
His smug tone said otherwise. "But you do not think so? How was it done,then?"
For a long moment Varys said nothing. The only sound was the stately clack of horseshoes on cobbles.
Finally the eunuch cleared his throat. "My lord, do you believe in the old powers?"
"Magic, you mean?" Tyrion said impatiently. "Bloodspells, curses, shapeshifting, those sorts of things?"
He snorted. "Do you mean to suggest that Ser Cortnay was magicked to his death?"
"Ser Cortnay had challenged Lord Stannis to single combat on the morning he died. I ask you, is this the
act of a man lost to despair? Then there is the matter of Lord Renly's mysterious and most fortuitous
murder, even as his battle lines were forming up to sweep his brother from the field." The eunuch paused
a moment. "My lord, you once asked me how it was that I was cut."
"I recall," said Tyrion. "You did not want to talk of it."
"Nor do I, but . . ." This pause was longer than the one before, and when Varys spoke again his voice
was different somehow. "I was an orphan boy apprenticed to a traveling folly. Our master owned a fat


little cog and we sailed up and down the narrow sea performing in all the Free Cities and from time to
time in Oldtown and King's Landing.
"One day at Myr, a certain man came to our folly. After the performance, he made an offer for me that
my master found too tempting to refuse. I was in terror. I feared the man meant to use me as I had heard
men used small boys, but in truth the only part of me he had need of was my manhood. He gave me a
potion that made me powerless to move or speak, yet did nothing to dull my senses. With a long hooked
blade, he sliced me root and stem, chanting all the while. I watched him burn my manly parts on a brazier.
The flames turned blue, and I heard a voice answer his call, though I did not understand the words they
spoke.
"The mummers had sailed by the time he was done with me. Once I had served his purpose, the man
had no further interest in me, so he put me out. When I asked him what I should do now, he answered
that he supposed I should die. To spite him, I resolved to live. I begged, I stole, and I sold what parts of
my body still remained to me. Soon I was as good a thief as any in Myr, and when I was older I learned
that often the contents of a man's letters are more valuable than the contents of his purse.
"Yet I still dream of that night, my lord. Not of the sorcerer, nor his blade, nor even the way my
manhood shriveled as it burned. I dream of the voice. The voice from the flames. Was it a god, a demon,
some conjurer's trick? I could not tell you, and I know all the tricks. All I can say for a certainty is that he
called it, and it answered, and since that day I
have hated magic and all those who practice it. If Lord Stannis is one such, I mean to see him dead."
When he was done, they rode in silence for a time. Finally Tyrion said, "A harrowing tale. I'm sorry."
The eunuch sighed. "You are sorry, but you do not believe me. No, my lord, no need to apologize. I
was drugged and in pain and it was a very long time ago and far across the sea. No doubt I dreamed that
voice. I've told myself as much a thousand times."
"I believe in steel swords, gold coins, and men's wits," said Tyrion. "And I believe there once were
dragons. I've seen their skulls, after all."
"Let us hope that is the worst thing you ever see, my lord."
"On that we agree." Tyrion smiled. "And for Ser Cortnay's death, well, we know Stannis hired sellsails
from the Free Cities. Perhaps he bought himself a skilled assassin as well."
"A very skilled assassin."
"There are such. I used to dream that one day Id be rich enough to send a Faceless Man after my sweet
sister."
"Regardless of how Ser Cortnay died," said Varys, "he is dead, the castle fallen. Stannis is free to
march."
"Any chance we might convince the Dornishmen to descend on the Marches?" asked Tyrion.
"None."
"A pity. Well, the threat may serve to keep the Marcher lords close to their castles, at least. What news


of my father?"
"If Lord Tywin has won across the Red Fork, no word has reached me yet. If he does not hasten, he
may be trapped between his foes. The Oakheart leaf and the Rowan tree have been seen north of the
Mander."
"No word from Littlefinger?"
"Perhaps he never reached Bitterbridge. Or perhaps he's died there. Lord Tarly has seized Renly's
stores and put a great many to the sword; Florents, chiefly. Lord Caswell has shut himself up in his
castle."
Tyrion threw back his head and laughed.
Varys reined up, nonplussed. "My lord?"
"Don't you see the jest, Lord Varys?" Tyrion waved a hand at the shuttered windows, at all the sleeping
city. "Storm's End is fallen and Stannis is coming with fire and steel and the gods alone know what dark
powers, and the good folk don't have Jaime to protect them, nor Robert nor Renly nor Rhaegar nor their
precious Knight of Flowers. Only me, the one they hate." He laughed again. "The dwarf, the evil
counselor, the twisted little monkey demon. I'm all that stands between them and chaos."
CHAPTER 45
CATELYN
Tell Father I have gone to make him proud." Her brother swung up into his saddle, every inch the lord in
his bright mail and flowing mud-and-water cloak. A silver trout ornamented the crest of his greathelm,
twin to the one painted on his shield.
"He was always proud of you, Edmure. And he loves you fiercely. Believe that."
"I mean to give him better reason than mere birth." He wheeled his warhorse about and raised a hand.
Trumpets sounded, a drum began to boom, the drawbridge descended in fits and starts, and Ser Edmure
Tully led his men out from Riverrun with lances raised and banners streaming.
I have a greater host than yours, brother, Catelyn thought as she watched them go. A host of doubts and
fears.
Beside her, Brienne's misery was almost palpable. Catelyn had ordered garments sewn to her measure,
handsome gowns to suit her birth and sex, yet still she preferred to dress in oddments of mail and boiled
leather, a swordbelt cinched around her waist. She would have been happier riding to war with Edmure,
no doubt, but even walls as strong as Riverrun's required swords to hold them. Her brother had taken
every able-bodied man for the fords, leaving Ser Desmond Grell to command a garrison made up of the
wounded, the old, and the sick, along with a few squires and some untrained peasant boys still shy of
manhood. This, to defend a castle crammed full of women and children.


When the last of Edmure's foot had shuffled under the portcullis, Brienne asked, "What shall we do now,
my lady?"
"Our duty." Catelyn's face was drawn as she started across the yard. I have always done my duty, she
thought. Perhaps that was why her lord father had always cherished her best of all his children. Her two
older brothers had both died in infancy, so she had been son as well as daughter to Lord Hoster until
Edmure was born. Then her mother had died and her father had told her that she must be the lady of
Riverrun now, and she had done that too. And when Lord Hoster promised her to Brandon Stark, she
had thanked him for making her such a splendid match.
I gave Brandon my favor to wear, and never comforted Petyr once after he was wounded, nor bid him
farewell when Father sent him off. And when Brandon was murdered and Father told me I must wed his
brother, I did so gladly, though I never saw Ned's face until our wedding day. I gave my maidenhood to
this solemn stranger and sent him off to his war and his king and the woman who bore him his bastard,
because I always did my duty.
Her steps took her to the sept, a seven-sided sandstone temple set amidst her mother's gardens and
filled with rainbow light. It was crowded when they entered; Catelyn was not alone in her need for
prayer. She knelt before the painted marble image of the Warrior and lit a scented candle for Edmure
and another for Robb off beyond the hills. Keep them safe and help them to victory, she prayed, and
bring peace to the souls of the slain and comfort to those they leave behind.
The septon entered with his censer and crystal while she was at her prayers, so Catelyn lingered for the
celebration. She did not know this septon, an earnest young man close to Edmure's age. He performed
his office well enough, and his voice was rich and pleasant when he sang the praises to the Seven, but
Catelyn found herself yearning for the thin quavering tones of Septon Osmynd, long dead. Osmynd
would have listened patiently to the tale of what she had seen and felt in Renly's pavilion, and he might
have known what it meant as well, and what she must do to lay to rest the shadows that stalked her
dreams. Osmynd, my father, Uncle Brynden, old Maester Kym, they always seemed to know everything,
but now there is only me, and it seems I know nothing, not even my duty. How can I do my duty if I do
not know where it lies?
Catelyn's knees were stiff by the time she rose, though she felt no wiser. Perhaps she would go to the
godswood tonight, and pray to Ned's gods as well. They were older than the Seven.
outside, she found song of a very different sort. Rymund the Rhymer sat by the brewhouse amidst a
circle of listeners, his deep voice ringing as he sang of Lord Deremond at the Bloody Meadow.
And there he stood with sword in hand, the last of Darry's ten . . .
Brienne paused to listen for a moment, broad shoulders hunched and thick arms crossed against her
chest. A mob of ragged boys raced by, screeching and flailing at each other with sticks. Why do boys so
love to play at war? Catelyn wondered if Rymund was the answer. The singer's voice swelled as he
neared the end of his song.
And red the grass beneath his feet, and red his banners bright, and red the glow of setting sun that
bathed him in its light. "Come on, come on," the great lord called, "my sword is hungry still. " And with a
cry of savage rage, They swarmed across the rill . . .
"Fighting is better than this waiting," Brienne said. "You don't feel so helpless when you fight. You have a
sword and a horse, sometimes an axe. When you're armored it's hard for anyone to hurt you."


"Knights die in battle," Catelyn reminded her.
Brienne looked at her with those blue and beautiful eyes. "As ladies die in childbed. No one sings songs
about them."
"Children are a battle of a different sort." Catelyn started across the yard. "A battle without banners or
warhorns, but no less fierce. Carrying a child, bringing it into the world . . . your mother will have told you
of the pain . . ."
"I never knew my mother," Brienne said. "My father had ladies . . . a different lady every year, but . . ."
"Those were no ladies," Catelyn said. "As hard as birth can be, Brienne, what comes after is even
harder. At times I feel as though I am being torn apart. Would that there were five of me, one for each
child, so I might keep them all safe."
"And who would keep you safe, my lady?"
Her smile was wan and tired. "Why, the men of my House. Or so my lady mother taught me. My lord
father, my brother, my uncle, my husband, they will keep me safe . . . but while they are away from me, I
suppose you must fill their place, Brienne."
Brienne bowed her head. "I shall try, my lady."
Later that day, Maester Vyman brought a letter. She saw him at once, hoping for some word from
Robb, or from Ser Rodrik in Winterfell, but the message proved to be from one Lord Meadows, who
named himself
castellan of Storm's End. it was addressed to her father, her brother, her son, "or whoever now holds
Riverrun." Ser Cortnay Penrose was dead, the man wrote, and Storm's End had opened its gate to
Stannis Baratheon, the trueborn and rightful heir. The castle garrison had sworn their swords to his cause,
one and all, and no man of them had suffered harm.
"Save Cortnay Penrose," Catelyn murmured. She had never met the man, yet she grieved to hear of his
passing. "Robb should know of this at once," she said. "Do we know where he is?"
"At last word he was marching toward the Crag, the seat of House Westerling," said Maester Vyman.
"If I dispatched a raven to Ashemark, it may be that they could send a rider after him."
"Do so."
Catelyn read the letter again after the maester was gone. "Lord Meadows says nothing of Robert's
bastard," she confided to Brienne. "I suppose he yielded the boy with the rest, though I confess, I do not
understand why Stannis wanted him so badly."
"Perhaps he fears the boy's claim."
"A bastard's claim? No, it's something else . . . what does this child look like?"
"He is seven or eight, comely, with black hair and bright blue eyes. Visitors oft thought him Lord Renly's
own son."


"And Renly favored Robert." Catelyn had a glimmer of understanding. "Stannis means to parade his
brother's bastard before the realm, so men might see Robert in his face and wonder why there is no such
likeness in Joffrey. "
"Would that mean so much?"
"Those who favor Stannis will call it proof. Those who support Joffrey will say it means nothing." Her
own children had more Tully about them than Stark. Arya was the only one to show much of Ned in her
features. And fon Snow, but he was never mine. She found herself thinking of Jon's mother, that shadowy
secret love her husband would never speak of. Does she grieve for Ned as I do? Or did she hate him for
leaving her bed for mine? Does she pray for her son as I have prayed for mine?
They were uncomfortable thoughts, and futile. If Jon had been born of Ashara Dayne of Starfall, as
some whispered, the lady was long dead; if not, Catelyn had no clue who or where his mother might be.
And it made no matter. Ned was gone now, and his loves and his secrets had all died with him.
Still, she was struck again by how strangely men behaved when it came to their bastards. Ned had
always been fiercely protective of Jon, and Ser Cortnay Penrose had given up his life for this Edric
Storm, yet
Roose Bolton's bastard had meant less to him than one of his dogs, to judge from the tone of the queer
cold letter Edmure had gotten from him not three days past. He had crossed the Trident and was
marching on Harrenhal as commanded, he wrote. "A strong castle, and well garrisoned, but His Grace
shall have it, if I must kill every living soul within to make it so." He hoped His Grace would weigh that
against the crimes of his bastard son, whom Ser Rodrik Cassel had put to death. "A fate he no doubt
earned," Bolton had written. "Tainted blood is ever treacherous, and Ramsay's nature was sly, greedy,
and cruel. I count myself well rid of him. The trueborn sons my young wife has promised me would never
have been safe while he lived."
The sound of hurrying footsteps drove the morbid thoughts from her head. Ser Desmond's squire dashed
panting into the room and knelt. "My lady . . . Lannisters . . . across the river."
"Take a long breath, lad, and tell it slowly."
He did as she bid him. "A column of armored men," he reported. "Across the Red Fork. They are flying
a purple unicorn below the lion of Lannister."
Some son of Lord Brax. Brax had come to Riverrun once when she was a girl, to propose wedding one
of his sons to her or Lysa. She wondered whether it was this same son out there now, leading the attack.
The Lannisters had ridden out of the southeast beneath a blaze of banners, Ser Desmond told her when
she ascended to the battlements to join him. "A few outriders, no more," he assured her. "The main
strength of Lord Tywin's host is well to the south. We are in no danger here."
South of the Red Fork the land stretched away open and flat. From the watchtower Catelyn could see
for miles. Even so, only the nearest ford was visible. Edmure had entrusted Lord Jason Mallister with its
defense, as well as that of three others farther upriver. The Lannister riders were milling about uncertainly
near the water, crimson and silver banners flapping in the wind. "No more than fifty, my lady," Ser
Desmond estimated.


Catelyn watched the riders spread out in a long line. Lord Jason's men waited to receive them behind
rocks and grass and hillocks. A trumpet blast sent the horsemen forward at a ponderous walk, splashing
down into the current. For a moment they made a brave show, all bright armor and streaming banners,
the sun flashing off the points of their lances.
"Now," she heard Brienne mutter.
It was hard to make out what was happening, but the screams of the horses seemed loud even at this
remove, and beneath them Catelyn heard the fainter clash of steel on steel. A banner vanished suddenly
as its bearer was swept under, and soon after the first dead man drifted past
their walls, borne along by the current. By then the Lannisters had pulled back in confusion. She
watched as they re-formed, conferred briefly, and galloped back the way they had come. The men on
the walls shouted taunts after them, though they were already too far off to hear.
Ser Desmond slapped his belly. "Would that Lord Hoster could have seen that. It would have made him
dance."
"My father's dancing days are past, I fear," Catelyn said, "and this fight is just begun. The Lannisters will
come again. Lord Tywin has twice my brother's numbers."
"He could have ten times and it would not matter," Ser Desmond said. "The west bank of the Red Fork
is higher than the east, my lady, and well wooded. Our bowmen have good cover, and a clear field for
their shafts . . . and should any breach occur, Edmure will have his best knights in reserve, ready to ride
wherever they are most sorely needed. The river will hold them."
"I pray that you are right," Catelyn said gravely.
That night they came again. She had commanded them to wake her at once if the enemy returned, and
well after midnight a serving girl touched her gently by the shoulder. Catelyn sat up at once. "What is it?"
"The ford again, my lady."
Wrapped in a bedrobe, Catelyn climbed to the roof of the keep. From there she could see over the
walls and the moonlit river to where the battle raged. The defenders had built watchfires along the bank,
and perhaps the Lannisters thought to find them night-blind or unwary. If so, it was folly. Darkness was a
chancy ally at best. As they waded in to breast their way across, men stepped in hidden pools and went
down splashing, while others stumbled over stones or gashed their feet on the hidden caltrops. The
Mallister bowmen sent a storm of fire arrows hissing across the river, strangely beautiful from afar. One
man, pierced through a dozen times, his clothes afire, danced and whirled in the knee-deep water until at
last he fell and was swept downstream. By the time his body came bobbing past Riverrun, the fires and
his life had both been extinguished.
A small victory, Catelyn thought when the fighting had ended and the surviving foemen had melted back
into the night, yet a victory nonetheless. As they descended the winding turret steps, Catelyn asked
Brienne for her thoughts. "That was the brush of Lord Tywin's fingertip, my lady," the girl said. "He is
probing, feeling for a weak point, an undefended crossing. if he does not find one, he will curl all his
fingers into a fist and try and make one." Brienne hunched her shoulders. "That's what I'd do. Were I
him." Her hand went to the hilt of her sword and gave it a little pat, as if to make certain it was still there.
And may the gods help us then, Catelyn thought. Yet there was


nothing she could do for it. That was Edmure's battle out there on the river; hers was here inside the
castle.
The next morning as she broke her fast, she sent for her father's aged steward, Utherydes Wayn. "Have
Ser Cleos Frey brought a flagon of wine. I mean to question him soon, and I want his tongue well
loosened."
"As you command, my lady."
Not long after, a rider with the Mallister eagle sewn on his breast arrived with a message from Lord
Jason, telling of another skirmish and another victory. Ser Flement Brax had tried to force a crossing at a
different ford six leagues to the south. This time the Lannisters shortened their lances and advanced
across the river behind on foot, but the Mallister bowmen had rained high arcing shots down over their
shields, while the scorpions Edmure had mounted on the riverbank sent heavy stones crashing through to
break up the formation. "They left a dozen dead in the water, only two reaching the shallows, where we
dealt with them briskly," the rider reported. He also told of fighting farther upstream, where Lord Karyl
Vance held the fords. "Those thrusts too were turned aside, at grievous cost to our foes."
Perhaps Edmure was wiser than I knew, Catelyn thought. His lords all saw the sense in his battle plans,
why was I so blind? My brother is not the little boy I remember, no more than Robb is.
She waited until evening before going to pay her call upon Ser Cleos Frey, reasoning that the longer she
delayed, the drunker he was likely to be. As she entered the tower cell, Ser Cleos stumbled to his knees.
"My lady, I knew naught of any escape. The Imp said a Lannister must needs have a Lannister escort, on
my oath as a knight-"
"Arise, ser." Catelyn seated herself. "I know no grandson of Walder Frey would be an oathbreaker."
Unless it served his purpose. "You brought peace terms, my brother said."
"I did." Ser Cleos lurched to his feet. She was pleased to see how unsteady he was.
"Tell me," she commanded, and he did.
When he was done, Catelyn sat frowning. Edmure had been right, these were no terms at all, except
"Lannister will exchange Arya and Sansa for his brother?"
"Yes. He sat on the Iron Throne and swore it."
"Before witnesses?"
"Before all the court, my lady. And the gods as well. I said as much to Ser Edmure, but he told me it
was not possible, that His Grace Robb would never consent."
"He told you true." She could not even say that Robb was wrong. Arya and Sansa were children. The
Kingslayer, alive and free, was as
dangerous as any man in the realm. That road led nowhere. "Did you see my girls? Are they treated
well?"
Ser Cleos hesitated. "I . . . yes, they seemed


He is fumbling for a lie, Catelyn realized, but the wine has fuddled his wits. "Ser Cleos," she said coolly,
"you forfeited the protection of your peace banner when your men played us false. Lie to me, and you'll
hang from the walls beside them. Believe that. I shall ask you once more-did you see my daughters?"
His brow was damp with sweat. "I saw Sansa at the court, the day Tyrion told me his terms. She looked
most beautiful, my lady. Perhaps a, a bit wan. Drawn, as it were."
Sansa, but not Arya. That might mean anything. Arya had always been harder to tame. Perhaps Cersei
was reluctant to parade her in open court for fear of what she might say or do. They might have her
locked safely out of sight. Or they might have killed her. Catelyn shoved the thought away. "His terms,
you said . . . yet Cersei is Queen Regent."
"Tyrion spoke for both of them. The queen was not there. She was indisposed that day, I was told."
"Curious." Catelyn thought back to that terrible trek through the Mountains of the Moon, and the way
Tyrion Lannister had somehow seduced that sellsword from her service to his own. The dwarf is too
clever by half. She could not imagine how he had survived the high road after Lysa had sent him from the
Vale, yet it did not surprise her. He had no part in Ned's murder, at the least. And he came to my
defense when the clansmen attacked us. If I could trust his word . . .
She opened her hands to look down at the scars across her fingers. His dagger's marks, she reminded
herself. His dagger, in the hand of the killer he paid to open Bran's throat. Though the dwarf denied it, to
be sure. Even after Lysa locked him in one of her sky cells and threatened him with her moon door, he
had still denied it. "He lied," she said, rising abruptly. "The Lannisters are liars every one, and the dwarf is
the worst of them. The killer was armed with his own knife."
Ser Cleos stared. "I know nothing of any-"
"You know nothing," she agreed, sweeping from the cell. Brienne fell in beside her, silent. It is simpler for
her, Catelyn thought with a pang of envy. She was like a man in that. For men the answer was always the
same, and never farther away than the nearest sword. For a woman, a mother, the way was stonier and
harder to know.
She took a late supper in the Great Hall with her garrison, to give them what encouragement she could.
Rymund the Rhymer sang through all the courses, sparing her the need to talk. He closed with the song
he had written about Robb's victory at Oxcross. "And the stars in the night were the eyes of his wolves,
and the wind itself was their song. "
Between the verses, Rymund threw back his head and howled, and by the end, half of the hall was
howling along with him, even Desmond Grell, who was well in his cups. Their voices rang off the rafters.
Let them have their songs, if it makes them brave, Catelyn thought, toying with her silver goblet.
"There was always a singer at Evenfall Hall when I was a girl," Brienne said quietly. "I learned all the
songs by heart."
"Sansa did the same, though few singers ever cared to make the long journey north to Winterfell." I told
her there would be singers at the king's court, though. I told her she would hear music of all sorts, that her
father could find some master to help her learn the high harp. Oh, gods forgive me . . .


Brienne said, "I remember a woman . . . she came from some place across the narrow sea. I could not
even say what language she sang in, but her voice was as lovely as she was. She had eyes the color of
plums and her waist was so tiny my father could put his hands around it. His hands were almost as big as
mine." She closed her long, thick fingers, as if to hide them.
"Did you sing for your father?" Catelyn asked.
Brienne shook her head, staring down at her trencher as if to find some answer in the gravy.
"For Lord Renly?"
The girl reddened. "Never, I . . . his fool, he made cruel japes sometimes, and I . . ."
"Someday you must sing for me."
"I . . . please, I have no gift." Brienne pushed back from the table. "Forgive me, my lady. Do I have your
leave to go?"
Catelyn nodded. The tall, ungainly girl left the hall with long strides, almost unnoticed amidst the revelry.
May the gods go with her, she thought as she returned listlessly to her supper.
It was three days later when the hammer blow that Brienne had foretold fell, and five days before they
heard of it. Catelyn was sitting with her father when Edmure's messenger arrived. The man's armor was
dinted, his boots dusty, and he had a ragged hole in his surcoat, but the look on his face as he knelt was
enough to tell her that the news was good. "Victory, my lady." He handed her Edmure's letter. Her hand
trembled as she broke the seal.
Lord Tywin had tried to force a crossing at a dozen different fords, her brother wrote, but every thrust
had been thrown back. Lord Lefford had been drowned, the Crakehall knight called Strongboar taken
captive, Ser Addam. Marbrand thrice forced to retreat . . . but the fiercest battle had been fought at
Stone Mill, where Ser Gregor Clegane had led the assault. So many of his men had fallen that their dead
horses threatened to dam
the flow. In the end the Mountain and a handful of his best had gained the west bank, but Edmure had
thrown his reserve at them, and they had shattered and reeled away bloody and beaten. Ser Gregor
himself had lost his horse and staggered back across the Red Fork bleeding from a dozen wounds while
a rain of arrows and stones fell all around him. "They shall not cross, Cat," Edmure scrawled, "Lord
Tywin is marching to the southeast. A feint perhaps, or full retreat, it matters not. They shall not cross. "
Ser Desmond Grell had been elated. "Oh, if only I might have been with him," the old knight said when
she read him the letter. "Where is that fool Rymund? There's a song in this, by the gods, and one that
even Edmure will want to hear. The mill that ground the Mountain down, I could almost make the words
myself, had I the singer's gift."
"I'll hear no songs until the fighting's done," Catelyn said, perhaps too sharply. Yet she allowed Ser
Desmond to spread the word, and agreed when he suggested breaking open some casks in honor of
Stone Mill. The mood within Riverrun had been strained and somber; they would all be better for a little
drink and hope.
That night the castle rang to the sounds of celebration. "Riverrun!" the smallfolk shouted, and "Tully!
Tully!" They'd come frightened and helpless, and her brother had taken them in when most lords would


have closed their gates. Their voices floated in through the high windows, and seeped under the heavy
redwood doors. Rymund played his harp, accompanied by a pair of drummers and a youth with a set of
reed pipes. Catelyn listened to girlish laughter, and the excited chatter of the green boys her brother had
left her for a garrison. Good sounds . . . and yet they did not touch her. She could not share their
happiness.
in her father's solar she found a heavy leatherbound book of maps and opened it to the riverlands. Her
eyes found the path of the Red Fork and traced it by flickering candlelight. Marching to the southeast,
she thought. By now they had likely reached the headwaters of the Blackwater Rush, she decided.
She closed the book even more uneasy than before. The gods had granted them victory after victory. At
Stone Mill, at Oxcross, in the Battle of the Camps, at the Whispering Wood . . .
But if we are winning, why am I so afraid?
CHAPTER 46
BRAN
The sound was the faintest of clinks, a scraping of steel over stone. He lifted his head from his paws,
listening, sniffing at the night. The evening's rain had woken a hundred sleeping smells and made them ripe
and strong again. Grass and thorns, blackberries broken on the ground, mud, worms, rotting leaves, a rat
creeping through the bush. He caught the shaggy black scent of his brother's coat and the sharp coppery
tang of blood from the squirrel he'd killed. Other squirrels moved through the branches above, smelling of
wet fur and fear, their little claws scratching at the bark. The noise had sounded something like that.
And he heard it again, clink and scrape. It brought him to his feet. His ears pricked and his tail rose. He
howled, a long deep shivery cry, a howl to wake the sleepers, but the piles of man-rock were dark and
dead. A still wet night, a night to drive men into their holes. The rain had stopped, but the men still hid
from the damp, huddled by the fires in their caves of piled stone.
His brother came sliding through the trees, moving almost as quiet as another brother he remembered
dimly from long ago, the white one with the eyes of blood. This brother's eyes were pools of shadow, but
the fur on the back of his neck was bristling. He had heard the sounds as well, and known they meant
danger.
This time the clink and scrape were followed by a slithering and the
soft swift patter of skinfeet on stone. The wind brought the faintest whiff of a man-smell he did not know.
Stranger. Danger. Death.
He ran toward the sound, his brother racing beside him. The stone dens rose before them, walls slick
and wet. He bared his teeth, but the man-rock took no notice. A gate loomed up, a black iron snake
coiled tight about bar and post. When he crashed against it, the gate shuddered and the snake clanked
and slithered and held. Through the bars he could look down the long stone burrow that ran between the
walls to the stony field beyond, but there was no way through. He could force his muzzle between the
bars, but no more. Many a time his brother had tried to crack the black bones of the gate between his


teeth, but they would not break. They had tried to dig under, but there were great flat stones beneath,
half-covered by earth and blown leaves.
Snarling, he paced back and forth in front of the gate, then threw himself at it once more. It moved a little
and slammed him back. Locked, something whispered. Chained. The voice he did not hear, the scent
without a smell. The other ways were closed as well. Where doors opened in the walls of man-rock, the
wood was thick and strong. There was no way out.
There is, the whisper came, and it seemed as if he could see the shadow of a great tree covered in
needles, slanting up out of the black earth to ten times the height of a man. Yet when he looked about, it
was not there. The other side of the godswood, the sentinel, hurry, hurry . . .
Through the gloom of night came a muffled shout, cut short.
Swiftly, swiftly, he whirled and bounded back into the trees, wet leaves rustling beneath his paws,
branches whipping at him as he rushed past. He could hear his brother following close. They plunged
under the heart tree and around the cold pool, through the blackberry bushes, under a tangle of oaks and
ash and hawthorn scrub, to the far side of the wood . . . and there it was, the shadow he'd glimpsed
without seeing, the slanting tree pointing at the rooftops. Sentinel, came the thought.
He remembered how it was to climb it then. The needles everywhere, scratching at his bare face and
falling down the back of his neck, the sticky sap on his hands, the sharp piney smell of it. It was an easy
tree for a boy to climb, leaning as it did, crooked, the branches so close together they almost made a
ladder, slanting right up to the roof.
Growling, he sniffed around the base of the tree, lifted a leg and marked it with a stream of urine. A low
branch brushed his face, and he snapped at it, twisting and pulling until the wood cracked and tore. His
mouth was full of needles and the bitter taste of the sap. He shook his head and snarled.
His brother sat back on his haunches and lifted his voice in a ululating howl, his song black with
mourning. The way was no way. They were not squirrels, nor the cubs of men, they could not wriggle up
the trunks of trees, clinging with soft pink paws and clumsy feet. They were runners, hunters, prowlers.
Off across the night, beyond the stone that hemmed them close, the dogs woke and began to bark. One
and then another and then all of them, a great clamor. They smelled it too; the scent of foes and fear.
A desperate fury filled him, hot as hunger. He sprang away from the wall loped off beneath the trees, the
shadows of branch and leaf dappling his grey fur . . . and then he turned and raced back in a rush. His
feet flew kicking up wet leaves and pine needles, and for a little time he was a hunter and an antlered stag
was fleeing before him and he could see it, smell it, and he ran full out in pursuit. The smell of fear made
his heart thunder and slaver ran from his jaws, and he reached the falling tree in stride and threw himself
up the trunk, claws scrabbling at the bark for purchase. Upward he bounded, up, two bounds, three,
hardly slowing, until he was among the lower limbs. Branches tangled his feet and whipped at his eyes,
grey-green needles scattered as he shouldered through them, snapping. He had to slow. Something
snagged at his foot and he wrenched it free, snarling. The trunk narrowed under him, the slope steeper,
almost straight up, and wet. The bark tore like skin when he tried to claw at it. He was a third of the way
up, halfway, more, the roof was almost within reach . . . and then he put down a foot and felt it slip off
the curve of wet wood, and suddenly he was sliding, stumbling. He yowled in fear and fury, falling, falling,
and twisted around while the ground rushed up to break him . . .
And then Bran was back abed in his lonely tower room, tangled in his blankets, his breath coming hard.


"Summer," he cried aloud. "Summer." His shoulder seemed to ache, as if he had fallen on it, but he knew
it was only the ghost of what the wolf was feeling. Jojen told it true. I am a beastling. Outside he could
hear the faint barking of dogs. The sea has come. It's flowing over the walls, just as fojen saw Bran
grabbed the bar overhead and pulled himself up, shouting for help. No one came, and after a moment he
remembered that no one would. They had taken the guard off his door. Ser Rodrik had needed every
man of fighting age he could lay his hands on, so Winterfell had been left with only a token garrison.
The rest had left eight days past, six hundred men from Winterfell and the nearest holdfasts. Cley
Cerwyn was bringing three hundred more to join them on the march, and Maester Luwin had sent ravens
before them, summoning levies from White Harbor and the barrowlands and
even the deep places inside the wolfswood. Torrhen's Square was under attack by some monstrous war
chief named Dagmer Cleftjaw. Old Nan said he couldn't be killed, that once a foe had cut his head in two
with an axe, but Dagmer was so fierce he'd just pushed the two halves back together and held them until
they healed up. Could Dagmer have won? Torrhen's Square was many days from Winterfell, yet still . . .
Bran pulled himself from the bed, moving bar to bar until he reached the windows. His fingers fumbled a
little as he swung back the shutters. The yard was empty, and all the windows he could see were black.
Winterfell slept. "Hodor!" he shouted down, as loud as he could. Hodor would be asleep above the
stables, but maybe if he yelled loud enough he'd hear, or somebody would. "Hodor, come fast! Osha!
Meera, Joien, anyone!" Bran cupped his hands around his mouth. "HOOOOODOOOOOR!"
But when the door crashed open behind him, the man who stepped through was no one Bran knew. He
wore a leather jerkin sewn with overlapping iron disks, and carried a dirk in one hand and an axe
strapped to his back. "What do you want?" Bran demanded, afraid. "This is my room. You get out of
here."
Theon Greyjoy followed him into the bedchamber. "We're not here to harm you, Bran."
"Theon?" Bran felt dizzy with relief. "Did Robb send you? Is he here too? "
"Robb's far away. He can't help you now."
"Help me?" He was confused. "Don't scare me, Theon."
"I'm Prince Theon now. We're both princes, Bran. Who would have dreamed it? But I've taken your
castle, my prince."
"Winterfell?" Bran shook his head. "No, you couldn't."
"Leave us, Werlag." The man with the dirk withdrew. Theon seated himself on the bed. "I sent four men
over the walls with grappling claws and ropes, and they opened a postern gate for the rest of us. My men
are dealing with yours even now. I promise you, Winterfell is mine."
Bran did not understand. "But you're Father's ward."
"And now you and your brother are my wards. As soon as the fighting's done, my men will be bringing
the rest of your people together in the Great Hall. You and I are going to speak to them. You'll tell them
how you've yielded Winterfell to me, and command them to serve and obey their new lord as they did
the old."


"I won't," said Bran. "We'll fight you and throw you out. I never yielded, you can't make me say I did."
"This is no game, Bran, so don't play the boy with me, I won't stand for it. The castle is mine, but these
people are still yours. If the prince
would keep them safe, he'd best do as he's told." He rose and went to the door. "Someone will come
dress you and carry you to the Great Hall. Think carefully on what you want to say."
The waiting made Bran feel even more helpless than before. He sat in the window seat, staring out at
dark towers and walls black as shadow. Once he thought he heard shouting beyond the Guards Hall, and
something that might have been the clash of swords, but he did not have Summer's ears to hear, nor his
nose to smell. Awake, I am still broken, but when I sleep, when I'm Summer, I can run and fight and hear
and smell.
He had expected that Hodor would come for him, or maybe one of the serving girls, but when the door
next opened it was Maester Luwin, carrying a candle. "Bran," he said, "you . . . know what has
happened? You have been told?" The skin was broken above his left eye, and blood ran down that side
of his face.
"Theon came. He said Winterfell was his now."
The maester set down the candle and wiped the blood off his cheek. "They swam the moat. Climbed the
walls with hook and rope. Came over wet and dripping, steel in hand." He sat on the chair by the door,
as fresh blood flowed. "Alebelly was on the gate, they surprised him in the turret and killed him.
Hayhead's wounded as well. I had time to send off two ravens before they burst in. The bird to White
Harbor got away, but they brought down the other with an arrow." The maester stared at the rushes.
"Ser Rodrik took too many of our men, but I am to blame as much as he is. I never saw this danger, I
never . . ."
lojen saw it, Bran thought. "You better help me dress."
"Yes, that's so." In the heavy ironbound chest at the foot of Bran's bed the maester found smallclothes,
breeches, and tunic. "You are the Stark in Winterfell, and Robb's heir. You must look princely." Together
they garbed him as befit a lord.
"Theon wants me to yield the castle," Bran said as the maester was fastening the cloak with his favorite
wolf's-head clasp of silver and jet.
"There is no shame in that. A lord must protect his smallfolk. Cruel places breed cruel peoples, Bran,
remember that as you deal with these ironmen. Your lord father did what he could to gentle Theon, but I
fear it was too little and too late."
The ironman who came for them was a squat thick-bodied man with a coal-black beard that covered
half his chest. He bore the boy easily enough, though he looked none too happy with the task. Rickon's
bedchamber was a half turn down the steps. The four-year-old was cranky at being woken. "I want
Mother," he said. "I want her. And Shaggydog too."
"Your mother is far away, my prince." Maester Luwin pulled a
bedrobe over the child's head. "But I'm here, and Bran." He took Rickon by the hand and led him out.


Below, they came on Meera and Jojen being herded from their room by a bald man whose spear was
three feet taller than he was. When Jojen looked at Bran, his eyes were green pools full of sorrow. Other
ironmen had rousted the Freys. "Your brother's lost his kingdom," Little Walder told Bran. "You're no
prince now, just a hostage."
"So are you," Jojen said, "and me, and all of us."
"No one was talking to you, frogeater."
One of the ironmen went before them carrying a torch, but the rain had started again and soon drowned
it out. As they hurried across the yard they could hear the direwolves howling in the godswood. I hope
Summer wasn't hurt falling from the tree.
Theon Greyjoy was seated in the high seat of the Starks. He had taken off his cloak. Over a shirt of fine
mail he wore a black surcoat emblazoned with the golden kraken of his House. His hands rested on the
wolves' heads carved at the ends of the wide stone arms. "Theon's sitting in Robb's chair," Rickon said.
"Hush, Rickon." Bran could feel the menace around them, but his brother was too young. A few torches
had been lit, and a fire kindled in the great hearth, but most of the hall remained in darkness. There was
no place to sit with the benches stacked against the walls, so the castle folk stood in small groups, not
daring to speak. He saw Old Nan, her toothless mouth opening and closing. Hayhead was carried in
between two of the other guards, a bloodstained bandage wrapped about his bare chest. Poxy Tym
wept inconsolably, and Beth Cassel cried with fear.
"What have we here?" Theon asked of the Reeds and Freys.
"These are Lady Catelyn's wards, both named Walder Frey," Maester Luwin explained. "And this is
Jojen Reed and his sister Meera, son and daughter to Howland Reed of Greywater Watch, who came to
renew their oaths of fealty to Winterfell."
"Some might call that ill-timed," said Theon, "though not for me. Here you are and here you'll stay." He
vacated the high seat. "Bring the prince here, Lorren." The black-bearded man dumped Bran onto the
stone as if he were a sack of oats.
People were still being driven into the Great Hall, prodded along with shouts and the butts of the spears.
Gage and Osha arrived from the kitchens, spotted with flour from making the morning bread. Mikken
they dragged in cursing. Farlen entered limping, struggling to support Palla. Her dress had been ripped in
two; she held it up with a clenched fist and walked as if every step were agony. Septon Chayle rushed to
lend a hand, but one of the ironmen knocked him to the floor.
The last man marched through the doors was the prisoner Reek,
whose stench preceded him, ripe and pungent. Bran felt his stomach twist at the smell of him. "We found
this one locked in a tower cell," announced his escort, a beardless youth with ginger-colored hair and
sodden clothing, doubtless one of those who'd swum the moat. "He says they call him Reek."
"Can't think why," Theon said, smiling. "Do you always smell so bad, or did you just finish fucking a
pig?"
"Haven't fucked no one since they took me, m'lord. Heke's me true name. I was in service to the
Bastard o' the Dreadfort till the Starks give him an arrow in the back for a wedding gift."


Theon found that amusing. "Who did he marry?"
"The widow o' Hornwood, m'lord. "
"That crone? Was he blind? She has teats like empty wineskins, dry and withered."
"It wasn't her teats he wed her for, m'lord."
The ironmen slammed shut the tall doors at the foot of the hall. From the high seat, Bran could see about
twenty of them. He probably left some guards on the gates and the armory. Even so, there couldn't be
more than thirty.
Theon raised his hands for quiet. "You all know me-"
"Aye, we know you for a sack of steaming dung!" shouted Mikken, before the bald man drove the butt
of his spear into his gut, then smashed him across the face with the shaft. The smith stumbled to his knees
and spat out a tooth.
"Mikken, you be silent." Bran tried to sound stern and lordly, the way Robb did when he made a
command, but his voice betrayed him and the words came out in a shrill squeak.
"Listen to your little lordling, Mikken," said Theon. "He has more sense than you do."
A good lord protects his people, he reminded himself. "I've yielded Winterfell to Theon."
"Louder, Bran. And call me prince."
He raised his voice. "I have yielded Winterfell to Prince Theon. All of you should do as he commands
you."
"Damned if I will!" bellowed Mikken.
Theon ignored the outburst. "My father has donned the ancient crown of salt and rock, and declared
himself King of the Iron Islands. He claims the north as well, by right of conquest. You are all his
subjects."
"Bugger that." Mikken wiped the blood from his mouth. "I serve the Starks, not some treasonous squid
of-aah." The butt of the spear smashed him face first into the stone floor.
"Smiths have strong arms and weak heads," observed Theon. "But if
the rest of you serve me as loyally as you served Ned Stark, you'll find me as generous a lord as you
could want."
on his hands and knees, Mikken spat blood. Please don't, Bran wished at him, but the blacksmith
shouted, "If you think you can hold the north with this sorry lot o'-"
The bald man drove the point of his spear into the back of Mikken's neck. Steel slid through flesh and
came out his throat in a welter of blood. A woman screamed, and Meera wrapped her arms around
Rickon. It's blood he drowned on, Bran thought numbly. His own blood.


"Who else has something to say?" asked Theon Greyjoy.
"Hodor hodor hodor hodor, " shouted Hodor, eyes wide.
"Someone kindly shut that halfwit up."
Two ironmen began to beat Hodor with the butts of their spears. The stableboy dropped to the floor,
trying to shield himself with his hands.
"I will be as good a lord to you as Eddard Stark ever was." Theon raised his voice to be heard above
the smack of wood on flesh. "Betray me, though, and you'll wish you hadn't. And don't think the men you
see here are the whole of my power. Torrhen's Square and Deepwood Motte will soon be ours as well,
and my uncle is sailing up the Saltspear to seize Moat Cailin. If Robb Stark can stave off the Lannisters,
he may reign as King of the Trident hereafter, but House Greyjoy holds the north now."
"Stark's lords will fight you," the man Reek called out. "That bloated pig at White Harbor for one, and
them Umbers and Karstarks too. You'll need men. Free me and I'm yours."
Theon weighed him a moment. "You're cleverer than you smell, but I could not suffer that stench."
"Well," said Reek, "I could wash some. If I was free."
"A man of rare good sense." Theon smiled. "Bend the knee."
one of the ironmen handed Reek a sword, and he laid it at Theon's feet and swore obedience to House
Grey-joy and King Balon. Bran could not look. The green dream was coming true.
"M'lord Greyjoy!" Osha stepped past Mikken's body. "I was brought here captive too. You were there
the day I was taken."
I thought you were a friend, Bran thought, hurt.
"I need fighters," Theon declared, "not kitchen sluts."
"It was Robb Stark put me in the kitchens. For the best part of a year, I've been left to scour kettles,
scrape grease, and warm the straw for this one." She threw a look at Gage. "I've had a bellyful of it. Put
a spear in my hand again."
"I got a spear for you right here," said the bald man who'd killed Mikken. He grabbed his crotch,
grinning.
Osha drove her bony knee up between his legs. "You keep that soft pink thing." She wrested the spear
from him and used the butt to knock him off his feet. "I'll have me the wood and iron." The bald man
writhed on the floor while the other reavers sent up gales of laughter.
Theon laughed with the rest. "You'll do," he said. "Keep the spear; Stygg can find another. Now bend
the knee and swear."
When no one else rushed forward to pledge service, they were dismissed with a warning to do their
work and make no trouble. Hodor was given the task of bearing Bran back to his bed. His face was all


ugly from the beating, his nose swollen and one eye closed. "Hodor," he sobbed between cracked lips as
he lifted Bran in huge strong arms and bloody hands and carried him back out into the rain.
CHAPTER 47
ARYA
There's ghosts, I know there is." Hot Pie was kneading bread, his arms floured up to his elbows. "Pia
saw something in the buttery last night."
Arya made a rude noise. Pia was always seeing things in the buttery. Usually they were men. "Can I
have a tart?" she asked. "You baked a whole tray."
"I need a whole tray. Ser Amory is partial to them."
She hated Ser Amory. "Let's spit on them."
Hot Pie looked around nervously. The kitchens were full of shadows and echoes, but the other cooks
and scullions were all asleep in the cavernous lofts above the ovens. "He'll know."
"He will not," Arya said. "You can't taste spit."
"If he does, it's me they'll whip." Hot Pie stopped his kneading. "You shouldn't even be here. It's the
black of night."
It was, but Arya never minded. Even in the black of night, the kitchens were never still; there was always
someone rolling dough for the morning bread, stirring a kettle with a long wooden spoon, or butchering a
hog for Ser Amory's breakfast bacon. Tonight it was Hot Pie.
"If Pinkeye wakes and finds you gone-" Hot Pie said.
"Pinkeye never wakes." His true name was Mebble, but everyone called him Pinkeye for his runny eyes.
"Not once he's passed out." Each morning he broke his fast with ale. Each evening he fell into a drunken
sleep after supper, wine-colored spit running down his chin. Arya would
wait until she heard him snoring, then creep barefoot up the servant's stair, making no more noise than
the mouse she'd been. She carried neither candle nor taper. Syrio had told her once that darkness could
be her friend, and he was right. If she had the moon and the stars to see by, that was enough. "I bet we
could escape, and Pinkeye wouldn't even notice I was gone," she told Hot Pie.
"I don't want to escape. It's better here than it was in them woods. I don't want to eat no worms. Here,
sprinkle some flour on the board."
Arya cocked her head. "What's that?"
"What? I don't-"


"Listen with your ears, not your mouth. That was a warhorn. Two blasts, didn't you hear? And there,
that's the portcullis chains, someone's going out or coming in. Want to go see?" The gates of Harrenhal
had not been opened since the morning Lord Tywin had marched with his host.
"I'm making the morning bread," Hot Pie complained. "Anyhow I don't like it when it's dark, I told you."
"I'm going. I'll tell you after. Can I have a tart?"
"No."
She filched one anyway, and ate it on her way out. It was stuffed with chopped nuts and fruit and
cheese, the crust flaky and still warm from the oven. Eating Ser Amory's tart made Arya feel daring.
Barefoot surefoot lightfoot, she sang under her breath. I am the ghost in Harrenhal.
The horn had stirred the castle from sleep; men were coming out into the ward to see what the
commotion was about. Arya fell in with the others. A line of ox carts were rumbling under the portcullis.
Plunder, she knew at once. The riders escorting the carts spoke in a babble of queer tongues. Their
armor glinted pale in the moonlight, and she saw a pair of striped black-and-white zorses. The Bloody
Mummers. Arya withdrew a little deeper into the shadows, and watched as a huge black bear rolled by,
caged in the back of a wagon. Other carts were loaded down with silver plate, weapons and shields,
bags of flour, pens of squealing hogs and scrawny dogs and chickens. Arya was thinking how long it had
been since she'd had a slice off a pork roast when she saw the first of the prisoners.
By his bearing and the proud way he held his head, he must have been a lord. She could see mail glinting
beneath his torn red surcoat. At first Arya took him for a Lannister, but when he passed near a torch she
saw his device was a silver fist, not a lion. His wrists were bound tightly, and a rope around one ankle
tied him to the man behind him, and him to the man behind him, so the whole column had to shuffle along
in a lurching
lockstep. Many of the captives were wounded. If any halted, one of the riders would trot up and give
him a lick of the whip to get him moving again. She tried to judge how many prisoners there were, but
lost count before she got to fifty. There were twice that many at least. Their clothing was stained with
mud and blood, and in the torchlight it was hard to make out all their badges and sigils, but some of those
Arya glimpsed she recognized. Twin towers. Sunburst. Bloody man. Battle-axe. The battleaxe is for
Cerwyn, and the white sun on black is Karstark. They're northmen. My father's men, and Robb's. She
didn't like to think what that might mean.
The Bloody Mummers began to dismount. Stableboys emerged sleepy from their straw to tend their
lathered horses. One of the riders was shouting for ale. The noise brought Ser Amory Lorch out onto the
covered gallery above the ward, flanked by two torchbearers. Goat-helmed Vargo Hoat reined up
below him. "My lord cathellan," the sellsword said. He had a thick, slobbery voice, as if his tongue was
too big for his mouth.
"What's all this, Hoat?" Ser Amory demanded, frowning.
"Captiths. Rooth Bolton thought to croth the river, but my Brafe Companions cut his van to pieceth.
Killed many, and thent Bolton running. Thith ith their lord commander, Glover, and the one behind ith
Ther Aenyth Frey."
Ser Amory Lorch stared down at the roped captives with his little pig eyes. Arya did not think he was
pleased. Everyone in the castle knew that he and Vargo Hoat hated each other. "Very well," he said.


"Ser Cadwyn, take these men to the dungeons."
The lord with the mailed fist on his surcoat raised his eyes. "We were promised honorable treatment-" he
began.
"Silenth!" Vargo Hoat screamed at him, spraying spittle.
Ser Amory addressed the captives. "What Hoat promised you is nothing to me. Lord Tywin made me
the castellan of Harrenhal, and I shall do with you as I please." He gestured to his guards. "The great cell
under the Widow's Tower ought to hold them all. Any who do not care to go are free to die here."
As his men herded off the captives at spearpoint, Arya saw Pinkeye emerge from the stairwell, blinking
at the torchlight. If he found her missing, he would shout and threaten to whip the bloody hide off her, but
she was not afraid. He was no Weese. He was forever threatening to whip the bloody hide off this one or
that one, but Arya never actually knew him to hit. Still, it would be better if he never saw her. She
glanced around. The oxen were being unharnessed, the carts unloaded, while the Brave Companions
clamored for drink and the curious gathered around
the caged bear. In the commotion, it was not hard to slip off unseen. She went back the way she had
come, wanting to be out of sight before someone noticed her and thought to put her to work.
Away from the gates and the stables, the great castle was largely deserted. The noise dwindled behind
her. A swirling wind gusted, drawing a high shivery scream from the cracks in the Wailing Tower. Leaves
had begun to fall from the trees in the godswood, and she could hear them moving through the deserted
courtyards and between the empty buildings, making a faint skittery sound as the wind drove them across
the stones. Now that Harrenhal was near empty once again, sound did queer things here. Sometimes the
stones seemed to drink up noise, shrouding the yards in a blanket of silence. Other times, the echoes had
a life of their own, so every footfall became the tread of a ghostly army, and every distant voice a ghostly
feast. The funny sounds were one of the things that bothered Hot Pie, but not Arya.
Quiet as a shadow, she flitted across the middle bailey, around the Tower of Dread, and through the
empty mews, where people said the spirits of dead falcons stirred the air with ghostly wings. She could
go where she would. The garrison numbered no more than a hundred men, so small a troop that they
were lost in Harrenhal. The Hall of a Hundred Hearths was closed off, along with many of the lesser
buildings, even the Wailing Tower. Ser Amory Lorch resided in the castellan's chambers in Kingspyre,
themselves as spacious as a lord's, and Arya and the other servants had moved to the cellars beneath him
so they would be close at hand. While Lord Tywin had been in residence, there was always a
manat-arms wanting to know your business. But now there were only a hundred men left to guard a
thousand doors, and no one seemed to know who should be where, or care much.
As she passed the armory, Arya heard the ring of a hammer. A deep orange glow shone through the
high windows. She climbed to the roof and peeked down. Gendry was beating out a breastplate. When
he worked, nothing existed for him but metal, bellows, fire. The hammer was like part of his arm. She
watched the play of muscles in his chest and listened to the steel music he made. He's strong, she thought.
As he took up the long-handled tongs to dip the breastplate into the quenching trough, Arya slithered
through the window and leapt down to the floor beside him.
He did not seem surprised to see her. "You should be abed, girl." The breastplate hissed like a cat as he
dipped it in the cold water. "What was all that noise?"
"Vargo Float's come back with prisoners. I saw their badges. There's a Glover, from Deepwood Motte,


he's my father's man. The rest too,
mostly." All of a sudden, Arya knew why her feet had brought her here. "You have to help me get them
out."
Gendry laughed. "And how do we do that?"
"Ser Amory sent them down to the dungeon. The one under the Widow's Tower, that's just one big cell.
You could smash the door open with your hammer-"
"While the guards watch and make bets on how many swings it will take me, maybe?"
Arya chewed her lips. "We'd need to kill the guards."
"How are we supposed to do that?"
"Maybe there won't be a lot of them."
"If there's two, that's too many for you and me. You never learned nothing in that village, did you? You
try this and Vargo Hoat will cut off your hands and feet, the way he does." Gendry took up the tongs
again.
"You're afraid."
"Leave me alone, girl."
"Gendry, there's a hundred northmen. Maybe more, I couldn't count them all. That's as many as Ser
Amory has. Well, not counting the Bloody Mummers. We just have to get them out and we can take
over the castle and escape."
"Well, you can't get them out, no more'n you could save Lommy." Gendry turned the breastplate with
the tongs to look at it closely. "And if we did escape, where would we go?"
"Winterfell," she said at once. "Id tell Mother how you helped me, and you could stay-"
"Would m'lady permit? Could I shoe your horses for you, and make swords for your lordly brothers?"
Sometimes he made her so angry. "You stop that!"
"Why should I wager my feet for the chance to sweat in Winterfell in place of Harrenhal? You know old
Ben Blackthumb? He came here as a boy. Smithed for Lady Whent and her father before her and his
father before him, and even for Lord Lothston who held Harrenhal before the Whents. Now he smiths
for Lord Tywin, and you know what he says? A sword's a sword, a helm's a helm, and if you reach in
the fire you get burned, no matter who you're serving. Lucan's a fair enough master. I'll stay here."
"The queen will catch you, then. She didn't send gold cloaks after Ben Blackthumb!"
"Likely it wasn't even me they wanted."
"It was too, you know it. You're somebody."


"I'm a 'prentice smith, and one day might be I'll make a master armorer . . . if I don't run off and lose my
feet or get myself killed." He
turned away from her, picked up his hammer once more, and began to bang.
Arya's hands curled into helpless fists. "The next helm you make, put mule's ears on it in place of bull's
horns!" She had to flee, or else she would have started hitting him. He probably wouldn't even feel it if I
did. When they find who he is and cut off his stupid mulehead, he'll be sorry he didn't help. She was
better off without him anyhow. He was the one who got her caught at the village.
But thinking of the village made her remember the march, and the storeroom, and the Tickler. She
thought of the little boy who'd been hit in the face with the mace, of stupid old All-for-Joffrey, of Lommy
Greenhands. I was a sheep, and then I was a mouse, I couldn't do anything but hide. Arya chewed her
lip and tried to think when her courage had come back. Jaqen made me brave again. He made me a
ghost instead of a mouse.
She had been avoiding the Lorathi since Weese's death. Chiswyck had been easy, anyone could push a
man off the wallwalk, but Weese had raised that ugly spotted dog from a pup, and only some dark magic
could have turned the animal against him. Yoren found faqen in a black cell, the same as Rorge and Biter,
she remembered. faqen did something horrible and Yoren knew, that's why he kept him in chains. If the
Lorathi was a wizard, Rorge and Biter could be demons he called up from some hell, not men at all.
Jaqen still owed her one death. In Old Nan's stories about men who were given magic wishes by a
grumkin, you had to be especially careful with the third wish, because it was the last. Chiswyck and
Weese hadn't been very important. The last death has to count, Arya told herself every night when she
whispered her names. But now she wondered if that was truly the reason she had hesitated. So long as
she could kill with a whisper, Arya need not be afraid of anyone . . . but once she used up the last death,
she would only be a mouse again.
With Pinkeye awake, she dared not go back to her bed. Not knowing where else to hide, she made for
the godswood. She liked the sharp smell of the pines and sentinels, the feel of grass and dirt between her
toes, and the sound the wind made in the leaves. A slow little stream meandered through the wood, and
there was one spot where it had eaten the ground away beneath a deadfall.
There, beneath rotting wood and twisted splintered branches, she found her hidden sword.
Gendry was too stubborn to make one for her, so she had made her own by breaking the bristles off a
broom. Her blade was much too light and had no proper grip, but she liked the sharp jagged splintery
end.
Whenever she had a free hour she stole away to work at the drills Syrio had taught her, moving barefoot
over the fallen leaves, slashing at branches and whacking down leaves. Sometimes she even climbed the
trees and danced among the upper branches, her toes gripping the limbs as she moved back and forth,
teetering a little less every day as her balance returned to her. Night was the best time; no one ever
bothered her at night.
Arya climbed. Up in the kingdom of the leaves, she unsheathed and for a time forgot them all, Ser
Amory and the Mummers and her father's men alike, losing herself in the feel of rough wood beneath the
soles of her feet and the swish of sword through air. A broken branch became Joffrey. She struck at it
until it fell away. The queen and Ser Ilyn and Ser Meryn and the Hound were only leaves, but she killed
them all as well, slashing them to wet green ribbons. When her arm grew weary, she sat with her legs


over a high limb to catch her breath in the cool dark air, listening to the squeak of bats as they hunted.
Through the leafy canopy she could see the bone-white branches of the heart tree. It looks just like the
one in Winterfell from here. If only it had been . . . then when she climbed down she would have been
home again, and maybe find her father sitting under the weirwood where he always sat.
Shoving her sword through her belt, she slipped down branch to branch until she was back on the
ground. The light of the moon painted the limbs of the weirwood silvery white as she made her way
toward it, but the five-pointed red leaves turned black by night. Arya stared at the face carved into its
trunk. It was a terrible face, its mouth twisted, its eyes flaring and full of hate. Is that what a god looked
like? Could gods be hurt, the same as people? I should pray, she thought suddenly.
Arya went to her knees. She wasn't sure how she should begin. She clasped her hands together. Help
me, you old gods, she prayed silently. Help me get those men out of the dungeon so we can kill Ser
Amory, and bring me home to Winterfell. Make me a water dancer and a wolf and not afraid again, ever.
Was that enough? Maybe she should pray aloud if she wanted the old gods to hear. Maybe she should
pray longer. Sometimes her father had prayed a long time, she remembered. But the old gods had never
helped him. Remembering that made her angry. "You should have saved him," she scolded the tree. "He
prayed to you all the time. I don't care if you help me or not. I don't think you could even if you wanted
to."
"Gods are not mocked, girl."
The voice startled her. She leapt to her feet and drew her wooden sword. Jaqen H'ghar stood so still in
the darkness that he seemed one of
the trees. "A man comes to hear a name. One and two and then comes three. A man would have done."
Arya lowered the splintery point toward the ground. "How did you know I was here?"
"A man sees. A man hears. A man knows."
She regarded him suspiciously. Had the gods sent him? "How'd you make the dog kill Weese? Did you
call Rorge and Biter up from hell? Is Jaqen H'ghar your true name?"
"Some men have many names. Weasel. Arry. Arya."
She backed away from him, until she was pressed against the heart tree. "Did Gendry tell?"
"A man knows," he said again. "My lady of Stark."
Maybe the gods had sent him in answer to her prayers. "I need you to help me get those men out of the
dungeons. That Glover and those others, all of them. We have to kill the guards and open the cell
somehow-"
"A girl forgets," he said quietly. "Two she has had, three were owed. If a guard must die, she needs only
speak his name."
"But one guard won't be enough, we need to kill them all to open the cell." Arya bit her lip hard to stop
from crying. "I want you to save the northmen like I saved you."


He looked down at her pitilessly. "Three lives were snatched from a god. Three lives must be repaid.
The gods are not mocked." His voice was silk and steel.
"I never mocked." She thought for a moment. "The name . . . can I name anyone? And you'll kill him?"
Jaqen H'ghar inclined his head. "A man has said."
"Anyone?" she repeated. "A man, a woman, a little baby, or Lord Tywin, or the High Septon, or your
father?"
"A man's sire is long dead, but did he live, and did you know his name, he would die at your command."
"Swear it," Arya said. "Swear it by the gods."
"By all the gods of sea and air, and even him of fire, I swear it." He placed a hand in the mouth of the
weirwood. "By the seven new gods and the old gods beyond count, I swear it."
He has sworn. "Even if I named the king
"Speak the name, and death will come. On the morrow, at the turn of the moon, a year from this day, it
will come. A man does not fly like a bird, but one foot moves and then another and one day a man is
there, and a king dies." He knelt beside her, so they were face-to-face, "A girl whispers if she fears to
speak aloud. Whisper it now. Is it loffrey?"
Arya put her lips to his ear. "It's Jaqen H'ghar."
Even in the burning barn, with walls of flame towering all around and
him in chains, he had not seemed so distraught as he did now. "A girl . . . she makes a jest."
"You swore. The gods heard you swear."
"The gods did hear," There was a knife in his hand suddenly, its blade thin as her little finger. Whether it
was meant for her or him, Arya could not say. "A girl will weep. A girl will lose her only friend."
"You're not my friend. A friend would help me." She stepped away from him, balanced on the balls of
her feet in case he threw his knife. "I'd never kill a friend."
Jaqen's smile came and went. "A girl might . . . name another name then, if a friend did help?"
"A girl might," she said. "If a friend did help."
The knife vanished. "Come."
"Now?" She had never thought he would act so quickly.
"A man hears the whisper of sand in a glass. A man will not sleep until a girl unsays a certain name.
Now, evil child."
I'm not an evil child, she thought, I am a direwolf, and the ghost in Harrenhal. She put her broomstick
back in its hiding place and followed him from the godswood.


Despite the hour, Harrenhal stirred with fitful life. Vargo Hoat's arrival had thrown off all the routines. Ox
carts, oxen, and horses had all vanished from the yard, but the bear cage was still there. it had been hung
from the arched span of the bridge that divided the outer and middle wards, suspended on heavy chains,
a few feet off the ground. A ring of torches bathed the area in light. Some of the boys from the stables
were tossing stones to make the bear roar and grumble. Across the ward, light spilled through the door
of the Barracks Hall, accompanied by the clatter of tankards and men calling for more wine. A dozen
voices took up a song in a guttural tongue strange to Arya's ears.
They're drinking and eating before they sleep, she realized. Pinkeye would have sent to wake me, to
help with the serving. He'll know I'm not abed. But likely he was busy pouring for the Brave Companions
and those of Ser Amory's garrison who had joined them. The noise they were making would be a good
distraction.
"The hungry gods will feast on blood tonight, if a man would do this thing," Jaqen said. "Sweet girl, kind
and gentle. Unsay one name and say another and cast this mad dream aside."
"I won't."
"Just so." He seemed resigned. "The thing will be done, but a girl must obey. A man has no time for
talk."
"A girl will obey," Arya said. "What should I do?"
"A hundred men are hungry, they must be fed, the lord commands hot broth. A girl must run to the
kitchens and tell her pie boy."
"Broth ' " she repeated. "Where will you be?"
"A girl will help make broth, and wait in the kitchens until a man comes for her. Go. Run."
Hot Pie was pulling his loaves from the ovens when she burst into the kitchen, but he was no longer
alone. They'd woken the cooks to feed Vargo Hoat and his Bloody Mummers. Serving men were
carrying off baskets of Hot Pie's bread and tarts, the chief cook was carving cold slices off a ham, spit
boys were turning rabbits while the pot girls basted them with honey, women were chopping onions and
carrots. "What do you want, Weasel?" the chief cook asked when he saw her.
"Broth," she announced. "My lord wants broth."
He jerked his carving knife at the black iron kettles hung over the flames. "What do you think that is?
Though Id soon as piss in it as serve it to that goat. Can't even let a man have a night's sleep." He spat.
"Well, never you mind, run back and tell him a kettle can't be hurried,"
"I'm to wait here until it's done."
"Then stay out of the way. Or better yet, make yourself of use. Run to the buttery; his goatship will be
wanting butter and cheese. Wake up Pia and tell her she'd best be nimble for once, if she wants to keep
both of her feet."
She ran as fast as she could. Pia was awake in the loft, moaning under one of the Mummers, but she
slipped back into her clothes quick enough when she heard Arya shout. She filled six baskets with crocks


of butter and big wedges of stinky cheese wrapped in cloth. "Here, help me with these," she told Arya.
"I can't. But you better hurry or Vargo Hoat will chop off your foot." She darted off before Pia could
grab her. on the way back, she wondered why none of the captives had their hands or feet chopped off.
Maybe Vargo Hoat was afraid to make Robb angry. Though he didn't seem the sort to be afraid of
anyone.
Hot Pie was stirring the kettles with a long wooden spoon when Arya returned to the kitchens. She
grabbed up a second spoon and started to help. For a moment she thought maybe she should tell him,
but then she remembered the village and decided not to. He'd only yield again.
Then she heard the ugly sound of Rorge's voice. "Cook," he shouted. "We'll take your bloody broth."
Arya let go of the spoon in dismay. I never told him to bring them. Rorge wore his iron helmet, with the
nasal that half hid his missing nose. Jaqen and Biter followed him into the kitchen.
"The bloody broth isn't bloody ready yet," the cook said. "It needs to simmer. We only now put in the
onions and-"
"Shut your hole, or I'll shove a spit up your ass and we'll baste you for a turn or two. I said broth and I
said now."
Hissing, Biter grabbed a handful of half-charred rabbit right off the spit, and tore into it with his pointed
teeth while honey dripped between his fingers.
The cook was beaten. "Take your bloody broth, then, but if the goat asks why it tastes so thin, you tell
him."
Biter licked the grease and honey off his fingers as Jaqen Hghar donned a pair of heavy padded mitts.
He gave a second pair to Arya. "A weasel will help." The broth was boiling hot, and the kettles were
heavy. Arya and Jaqen wrestled one between them, Rorge carried one by himself, and Biter grabbed
two more, hissing in pain when the handles burned his hands. Even so, he did not drop them. They lugged
the kettles out of the kitchens and across the ward. Two guards had been posted at the door of the
Widow's Tower. "What's this?" one said to Rorge.
"A pot of boiling piss, want some?"
Jaqen smiled disarmingly. "A prisoner must eat too."
"No one said nothing about-"
Arya cut him off. "It's for them, not you."
The second guard waved them past. "Bring it down, then."
Inside the door a winding stair led down to the dungeons. Rorge led the way, with Jaqen and Arya
bringing up the rear. "A girl will stay out of the way," he told her.
The steps opened onto a dank stone vault, long, gloomy, and windowless. A few torches burned in
sconces at the near end where a group of Ser Amory's guards sat around a scarred wooden table,
talking and playing at tiles. Heavy iron bars separated them from where the captives were crowded
together in the dark. The smell of the broth brought many up to the bars.


Arya counted eight guards. They smelled the broth as well. "There's the ugliest serving wench I ever
saw," their captain said to Rorge. "What's in the kettle?"
"Your cock and balls. You want to eat or not?"
One of the guards had been pacing, one standing near the bars, a third sitting on the floor with his back
to the wall, but the prospect of food drew all of them to the table.
"About bloody time they fed us."
"That onions I smell?"
"So where's the bread?"
"Fuck, we need bowls, cups, spoons-"
"No you don't." Rorge heaved the scalding hot broth across the table, full in their faces. Jaqen H'ghar did
the same. Biter threw his kettles too, swinging them underarm so they spun across the dungeon, raining
soup. One caught the captain in the temple as he tried to rise. He went down
like a sack of sand and lay still. The rest were screaming in agony, praying, or trying to crawl off.
Arya pressed back against the wall as Rorge began to cut throats. Biter preferred to grab the men
behind the head and under the chin and crack their necks with a single twist of his huge pale hands. Only
one of the guards managed to get a blade out. Jaqen danced away from his slash, drew his own sword,
drove the man back into a corner with a flurry of blows, and killed him with a thrust to the heart. The
Lorathi brought the blade to Arya still red with heart's blood and wiped it clean on the front of her shift.
"A girl should be bloody too. This is her work."
The key to the cell hung from a hook on the wall above the table. Rorge took it down and opened the
door. The first man through was the lord with the mailed fist on his surcoat. "Well done," he said. "I am
Robett Glover."
"My lord." Jaqen gave him a bow.
Once freed, the captives stripped the dead guards of their weapons and darted up the steps with steel in
hand. Their fellows crowded after them, bare-handed. They went swiftly, and with scarcely a word.
None of them seemed quite so badly wounded as they had when Vargo Hoat had marched them through
the gates of Harrenhal. "This of the soup, that was clever," the man Glover was saying. "I did not expect
that. Was it Lord Hoat's idea?"
Rorge began to laugh. He laughed so hard that snot flew out the hole where his nose had been. Biter sat
on top of one of the dead men, holding a limp hand as he gnawed at the fingers. Bones cracked between
his teeth.
"Who are you men?" A crease appeared between Robett Glover's brows. "You were not with Hoat
when he came to Lord Bolton's encampment. Are you of the Brave Companions?"
Rorge wiped the snot off his chin with the back of his hand. "We are now."


"This man has the honor to be Jaqen H'ghar, once of the Free City of Lorath. This man's discourteous
companions are named Rorge and Biter. A lord will know which is Biter." He waved a hand toward
Arya. "And here-"
"I'm Weasel," she blurted, before he could tell who she really was. She did not want her name said here,
where Rorge might hear, and Biter, and all these others she did not know.
She saw Glover dismiss her. "Very well," he said. "Let's make an end to this bloody business."
When they climbed back up the winding stair, they found the door guards lying in pools of their own
blood. Northmen were running across the ward. Arya heard shouts. The door of Barracks Hall burst
open and a
wounded man staggered out screaming. Three others ran after him and silenced him with spear and
sword. There was fighting around the gatehouse as well. Rorge and Biter rushed off with Glover, but
Jaqen H'ghar knelt beside Arya. "A girl does not understand?"
"Yes I do," she said, though she didn't, not truly.
The Lorathi must have seen it on her face. "A goat has no loyalty. Soon a wolf banner is raised here, I
think. But first a man would hear a certain name unsaid."
"I take back the name." Arya chewed her lip. "Do I still have a third death?"
"A girl is greedy." Jaqen touched one of the dead guards and showed her his bloody fingers. "Here is
three and there is four and eight more lie dead below. The debt is paid."
"The debt is paid," Arya agreed reluctantly. She felt a little sad. Now she was just a mouse again.
"A god has his due. And now a man must die." A strange smile touched the lips of Jaqen H'ghar.
"Die?" she said, confused. What did he mean? "But I unsaid the name. You don't need to die now."
"I do. My time is done." Jaqen passed a hand down his face from forehead to chin, and where it went he
changed. His cheeks grew fuller, his eyes closer; his nose hooked, a scar appeared on his right cheek
where no scar had been before. And when he shook his head, his long straight hair, half red and half
white, dissolved away to reveal a cap of tight black curls.
Arya's mouth hung open. "Who are you?" she whispered, too astonished to be afraid. "How did you do
that? Was it hard?"
He grinned, revealing a shiny gold tooth. "No harder than taking a new name, if you know the way."
"Show me," she blurted. "I want to do it too."
"If you would learn, you must come with me."
Arya grew hesitant. "Where?"
"Far and away, across the narrow sea."


"I can't. I have to go home. To Winterfell."
"Then we must part," he said, "for I have duties too." He lifted her hand and pressed a small coin into her
palm. "Here."
"What is it?"
"A coin of great value."
Arya bit it. It was so hard it could only be iron. "Is it worth enough to buy a horse?"
"It is not meant for the buying of horses."
"Then what good is it?"
"As well ask what good is life, what good is death? if the day comes
when you would find me again, give that coin to any man from Braavos, and say these words to
him-valar morghulis."
"Valar morghulis," Arya repeated. It wasn't hard. Her fingers closed tight over the coin. Across the yard,
she could hear men dying. "Please don't go, Jaqen."
"Jaqen is as dead as Arry," he said sadly, "and I have promises to keep. Valar morghulis, Arya Stark.
Say it again."
"Valar morghulis, " she said once more, and the stranger in Jaqen's clothes bowed to her and stalked off
through the darkness, cloak swirling. She was alone with the dead men. They deserved to die, Arya told
herself, remembering all those Ser Amory Lorch had killed at the holdfast by the lake.
The cellars under Kingspyre were empty when she returned to her bed of straw. She whispered her
names to her pillow, and when she was done she added, "Valar morghulis, " in a small soft voice,
wondering what it meant.
Come dawn, Pinkeye and the others were back, all but one boy who'd been killed in the fighting for no
reason that anyone could say. Pinkeye went up alone to see how matters stood by light of day,
complaining all the while that his old bones could not abide steps. When he returned, he told them that
Harrenhal had been taken. "Them Bloody Mummers killed some of Ser Amory's lot in their beds, and the
rest at table after they were good and drunk. The new lord will be here before the day's out, with his
whole host. He's from the wild north up where that Wall is, and they say he's a hard one. This lord or that
lord, there's still work to be done. Any foolery and I'll whip the skin off your back." He looked at Arya
when he said that, but never said a word to her about where she had been the night before.
All morning she watched the Bloody Mummers strip the dead of their valuables and drag the corpses to
the Flowstone Yard, where a pyre was laid to dispose of them. Shagwell the Fool hacked the heads off
two dead knights and pranced about the castle swinging them by the hair and making them talk. "What
did you die of?" one head asked. "Hot weasel soup," replied the second.
Arya was set to mopping up dried blood. No one said a word to her beyond the usual, but every so
often she would notice people looking at her strangely. Robett Glover and the other men they'd freed
must have talked about what had happened down in the dungeon, and then Shagwell and his stupid


talking heads started in about the weasel soup. She would have told him to shut up, but she was scared
to. The fool was half-mad, and she'd heard that he'd once killed a man for not laughing at one of his
japes. He better shut his mouth or IT put him on my list with the rest, she thought as she scrubbed at a
reddish-brown stain.
it was almost evenfall when the new master of Harrenhal arrived. He had a plain face, beardless and
ordinary, notable only for his queer pale eyes. Neither plump, thin, nor muscular, he wore black ringmail
and a spotted pink cloak. The sigil on his banner looked like a man dipped in blood. "On your knees for
the Lord of the Dreadfort!" shouted his squire, a boy no older than Arya, and Harrenhal knelt.
Vargo Hoat came forward. "My lord, Harrenhal ith yourth."
The lord gave answer, but too softly for Arya to hear. Robett Glover and Ser Aenys Frey, freshly
bathed and clad in clean new doublets and cloaks, came up to join them. After some brief talk, Ser
Aenys led them over to Rorge and Biter. Arya was surprised to see them still here; somehow she would
have expected them to vanish when Jaqen did. Arya heard the harsh sound of Rorge's voice, but not
what he was saying. Then Shagwell pounced on her, dragging her out across the yard. "My lord, my
lord," he sang, tugging at her wrist, "here's the weasel who made the soup!"
"Let go," Arya said, wriggling out of his grasp.
The lord regarded her. Only his eyes moved; they were very pale, the color of ice. "How old are you,
child?"
She had to think for a moment to remember. "Ten."
"Ten, my lord," he reminded her. "Are you fond of animals?"
"Some kinds. My lord."
A thin smile twitched across his lips. "But not lions, it would seem. Nor manticores."
She did not know what to say to that, so she said nothing.
"They tell me you are called Weasel. That will not serve. What name did your mother give you?"
She bit her lip, groping for another name. Lommy had called her Lumpyhead, Sansa used Horseface,
and her father's men once dubbed her Arya Underfoot, but she did not think any of those were the sort
of name he wanted.
"Nymeria," she said. "Only she called me Nan for short."
"You will call me my lord when you speak to me, Nan," the lord said mildly. "You are too young to be a
Brave Companion, I think, and of the wrong sex. Are you afraid of leeches, child?"
"They're only leeches. My lord."
"My squire could take a lesson from you, it would seem. Frequent leechings are the secret of a long life.
A man must purge himself of bad blood. You will do, I think. For so long as I remain at Harrenhal, Nan,
you shall be my cupbearer, and serve me at table and in chambers."


This time she knew better than to say that she'd sooner work in the stables. "Yes, your lord. I mean, my
lord."
The lord waved a hand. "Make her presentable," he said to no one in
particular, "and make certain she knows how to pour wine without spilling it." Turning away, he lifted a
hand and said, "Lord Hoat, see to those banners above the gatehouse."
Four Brave Companions climbed to the ramparts and hauled down the lion of Lannister and Ser
Amory's own black manticore. In their place they raised the flayed man of the Dreadfort and the direwolf
of Stark. And that evening, a page named Nan poured wine for Roose Bolton and Vargo Hoat as they
stood on the gallery, watching the Brave Companions parade Ser Amory Lorch naked through the
middle ward. Ser Amory pleaded and sobbed and clung to the legs of his captors, until Rorge pulled him
loose, and Shagwell kicked him down into the bear pit.
The bear is all in black, Arya thought. Like Yoren. She filled Roose Bolton's cup, and did not spill a
drop.
CHAPTER 48
DAENERYS
In this city of splendors, Dany had expected the House of the Undying Ones to be the most splendid of
all, but she emerged from her
palanquin to behold a grey and ancient ruin.
Long and low, without towers or windows, it coiled like a stone serpent through a grove of
black-barked trees whose inky blue leaves made the stuff of the sorcerous drink the Qartheen called
shade of the evening. No other buildings stood near. Black tiles covered the palace roof, many fallen or
broken; the mortar between the stones was dry and crumbling. She understood now why Xaro Xhoan
Daxos called it the Palace of Dust. Even Drogon seemed disquieted by the sight of it. The black dragon
hissed, smoke seeping out between his sharp teeth.
"Blood of my blood," Jhogo said in Dothraki, "this is an evil place, a haunt of ghosts and maegi. See how
it drinks the morning sun? Let us go before it drinks us as well."
Ser Jorah Mormont came up beside them. "What power can they have if they live in that?"
"Heed the wisdom of those who love you best," said Xaro Xhoan Daxos, lounging inside the palanquin.
"Warlocks are bitter creatures who eat dust and drink of shadows. They will give you naught. They have
naught to give."
Aggo put a hand on his arakh. "Khaleesi, it is said that many go into the Palace of Dust, but few come
out."
"It is said," Jhogo agreed.


"We are blood of your blood," said Aggo, "sworn to live and die as you do. Let us walk with you in this
dark place, to keep you safe from harm."
"Some places even a khal must walk alone," Dany said.
"Take me, then," Ser Jorah urged. "The risk-"
"Queen Daenerys must enter alone, or not at all." The warlock Pyat Pree stepped out from under the
trees. Has he been there all along? Dany wondered. "Should she turn away now, the doors of wisdom
shall be closed to her forevermore."
"My pleasure barge awaits, even now," Xaro Xhoan Daxos called out. "Turn away from this folly, most
stubborn of queens. I have flutists who will soothe your troubled soul with sweet music, and a small girl
whose tongue will make you sigh and melt."
Ser Jorah Mormont gave the merchant prince a sour look. "Your Grace, remember Mirri Maz Duur."
"I do," Dany said, suddenly decided. "I remember that she had knowledge. And she was only a maegi."
Pyat Pree smiled thinly. "The child speaks as sagely as a crone. Take my arm, and let me lead you."
"I am no child." Dany took his arm nonetheless.
it was darker than she would have thought under the black trees, and the way was longer. Though the
path seemed to run straight from the street to the door of the palace, Pyat Pree soon turned aside. When
she questioned him, the warlock said only, "The front way leads in, but never out again. Heed my words,
my queen. The House of the Undying Ones was not made for mortal men. If you value your soul, take
care and do just as I tell you."
"I will do as you say," Dany promised.
"When you enter, you will find yourself in a room with four doors: the one you have come through and
three others. Take the door to your right. Each time, the door to your right. If you should come upon a
stairwell, climb. Never go down, and never take any door but the first door to your right."
"The door to my right," Dany repeated. "I understand. And when I leave, the opposite?"
"By no means," Pyat Pree said. "Leaving and coming, it is the same. Always up. Always the door to
your right. other doors may open to you. Within, you will see many things that disturb you. Visions of
loveliness and visions of horror, wonders and terrors. Sights and sounds of days gone by and days to
come and days that never were. Dwellers and servitors may speak to you as you go. Answer or ignore
them as you choose, but enter no room until you reach the audience chamber."
"I understand."
"When you come to the chamber of the Undying, be patient. Our little
lives are no more than a flicker of a moth's wing to them. Listen well, and write each word upon your
heart."


When they reached the door-a tall oval mouth, set in a wall fashioned in the likeness of a human face-the
smallest dwarf Dany had ever seen was waiting on the threshold. He stood no higher than her knee, his
faced pinched and pointed, snoutish, but he was dressed in delicate livery of purple and blue, and his tiny
pink hands held a silver tray. Upon it rested a slender crystal glass filled with a thick blue liquid: shade of
the evening, the wine of warlocks. "Take and drink," urged Pyat Pree.
"Will it turn my lips blue?"
"One flute will serve only to unstop your ears and dissolve the caul from off your eyes, so that you may
hear and see the truths that will be laid before you."
Dany raised the glass to her lips. The first sip tasted like ink and spoiled meat, foul, but when she
swallowed it seemed to come to life within her. She could feel tendrils spreading through her chest, like
fingers of fire coiling around her heart, and on her tongue was a taste like honey and anise and cream, like
mother's milk and Drogo's seed, like red meat and hot blood and molten gold. It was all the tastes she
had ever known, and none of them . . . and then the glass was empty.
"Now you may enter," said the warlock. Dany put the glass back on the servitor's tray, and went inside.
She found herself in a stone anteroom with four doors, one on each wall. With never a hesitation, she
went to the door on her right and stepped through. The second room was a twin to the first. Again she
turned to the right-hand door. When she pushed it open she faced yet another small antechamber with
four doors. I am in the presence of sorcery.
The fourth room was oval rather than square and walled in wormeaten wood in place of stone. Six
passages led out from it in place of four. Dany chose the rightmost, and entered a long, dim,
high-ceilinged hall. Along the right hand was a row of torches burning with a smoky orange light, but the
only doors were to her left. Drogon unfolded wide black wings and beat the stale air. He flew twenty feet
before thudding to an undignified crash. Dany strode after him.
The mold-eaten carpet under her feet had once been gorgeously colored, and whorls of gold could still
be seen in the fabric, glinting broken amidst the faded grey and mottled green. What remained served to
muffle her footfalls, but that was not all to the good. Dany could hear sounds within the walls, a faint
scurrying and scrabbling that made her think of rats. Drogon heard them too. His head moved as he
followed the sounds, and when they stopped he gave an angry scream. Other sounds, even more
disturbing, came through some of the closed doors. One
shook and thumped, as if someone were trying to break through. From another came a dissonant piping
that made the dragon lash his tail wildly from side to side. Dany hurried quickly past.
Not all the doors were closed. I will not look, Dany told herself, but the temptation was too strong.
In one room, a beautiful woman sprawled naked on the floor while four little men crawled over her.
They had rattish pointed faces and tiny pink hands, like the servitor who had brought her the glass of
shade. One was pumping between her thighs. Another savaged her breasts, worrying at the nipples with
his wet red mouth, tearing and chewing.
Farther on she came upon a feast of corpses. Savagely slaughtered, the feasters lay strewn across
overturned chairs and hacked trestle tables, asprawl in pools of congealing blood. Some had lost limbs,
even heads. Severed hands clutched bloody cups, wooden spoons, roast fowl, heels of bread. in a
throne above them sat a dead man with the head of a wolf. He wore an iron crown and held a leg of


lamb in one hand as a king might hold a scepter, and his eyes followed Dany with mute appeal.
She fled from him, but only as far as the next open door. I know this room, she thought. She
remembered those great wooden beams and the carved animal faces that adorned them. And there
outside the window, a lemon tree! The sight of it made her heart ache with longing. It is the house with
the red door, the house in Braavos. No sooner had she thought it than old Ser Willem came into the
room, leaning heavily on his stick. "Little princess, there you are," he said in his gruff kind voice. "Come,"
he said, "come to me, my lady, you're home now, you're safe now." His big wrinkled hand reached for
her, soft as old leather, and Dany wanted to take it and hold it and kiss it, she wanted that as much as she
had ever wanted anything. Her foot edged forward, and then she thought, He's dead, he's dead, the
sweet old bear, he died a long time ago. She backed away and ran.
The long hall went on and on and on, with endless doors to her left and only torches to her right. She ran
past more doors than she could count, closed doors and open ones, doors of wood and doors of iron,
carved doors and plain ones, doors with pulls and doors with locks and doors with knockers. Drogon
lashed against her back, urging her on, and Dany ran until she could run no more.
Finally a great pair of bronze doors appeared to her left, grander than the rest. They swung open as she
neared, and she had to stop and look. Beyond loomed a cavernous stone hall, the largest she had ever
seen. The skulls of dead dragons looked down from its walls. Upon a towering barbed throne sat an old
man in rich robes, an old man with dark eyes and long silver-grey hair. "Let him be king over charred
bones and cooked meat," he said to a man below him. "Let him be the king of
ashes." Drogon shrieked, his claws digging through silk and skin, but the king on his throne never heard,
and Dany moved on.
Viserys, was her first thought the next time she paused, but a second glance told her otherwise. The man
had her brother's hair, but he was taller, and his eyes were a dark indigo rather than lilac. "Aegon," he
said to a woman nursing a newborn babe in a great wooden bed. "What better name for a king?"
"Will you make a song for him?" the woman asked.
"He has a song," the man replied. "He is the prince that was promised, and his is the song of ice and
fire." He looked up when he said it and his eyes met Dany's, and it seemed as if he saw her standing there
beyond the door. "There must be one more," he said, though whether he was speaking to her or the
woman in the bed she could not say. "The dragon has three heads." He went to the window seat, picked
up a harp, and ran his fingers lightly over its silvery strings. Sweet sadness filled the room as man and wife
and babe faded like the morning mist, only the music lingering behind to speed her on her way.
It seemed as though she walked for another hour before the long hall finally ended in a steep stone stair,
descending into darkness. Every door, open or closed, had been to her left. Dany looked back behind
her. The torches were going out, she realized with a start of fear. Perhaps twenty still burned. Thirty at
most. One more guttered out even as she watched, and the darkness came a little farther down the hall,
creeping toward her. And as she listened it seemed as if she heard something else coming, shuffling and
dragging itself slowly along the faded carpet. Terror filled her. She could not go back and she was afraid
to stay here, but how could she go on? There was no door on her right, and the steps went down, not
up.
Yet another torch went out as she stood pondering, and the sounds grew faintly louder. Drogon's long
neck snaked out and he opened his mouth to scream, steam rising from between his teeth. He hears it
too. Dany turned to the blank wall once more, but there was nothing. Could there be a secret door, a


door I cannot see? Another torch went out. Another. The first door on the right, he said, always the first
door on the right. The first door on the right . . .
It came to her suddenly. . . . is the last door on the left!
She flung herself through. Beyond was another small room with four doors. To the right she went, and to
the right, and to the right, and to the right, and to the right, and to the right, and to the right, until she was
dizzy and out of breath once more.
When she stopped, she found herself in yet another dank stone chamber . . . but this time the door
opposite was round, shaped like an open mouth, and Pyat Pree stood outside in the grass beneath the
trees. "Can
it be that the Undying are done with you so soon?" he asked in disbelief when he saw her.
"So soon?" she said, confused. "I've walked for hours, and still not found them."
"You have taken a wrong turning. Come, I will lead you." Pyat Pree held out his hand.
Dany hesitated. There was a door to her right, still closed . . .
"That's not the way," Pyat Pree said firmly, his blue lips prim with disapproval. "The Undying Ones will
not wait forever."
"Our little lives are no more than a flicker of a moth's wing to them," Dany said, remembering.
"Stubborn child. You will be lost, and never found."
She walked away from him, to the door on the right.
"No," Pyat screeched. "No, to me, come to me, to meeeeeee." His face crumbled inward, changing to
something pale and wormlike.
Dany left him behind, entering a stairwell. She began to climb. Before long her legs were aching. She
recalled that the House of the Undying Ones had seemed to have no towers.
Finally the stair opened. To her right, a set of wide wooden doors had been thrown open. They were
fashioned of ebony and weirwood, the black and white grains swirling and twisting in strange interwoven
patterns. They were very beautiful, yet somehow frightening. The blood of the dragon must not be afraid.
Dany said a quick prayer, begging the Warrior for courage and the Dothraki horse god for strength. She
made herself walk forward.
Beyond the doors was a great hall and a splendor of wizards. Some wore sumptuous robes of ermine,
ruby velvet, and cloth of gold. Others fancied elaborate armor studded with gemstones, or tall pointed
hats speckled with stars. There were women among them, dressed in gowns of surpassing loveliness.
Shafts of sunlight slanted through windows of stained glass, and the air was alive with the most beautiful
music she had ever heard.
A kingly man in rich robes rose when he saw her, and smiled. "Daenerys of House Targaryen, be
welcome. Come and share the food of forever. We are the Undying of Qarth."


"Long have we awaited you," said a woman beside him, clad in rose and silver. The breast she had left
bare in the Qartheen fashion was as perfect as a breast could be.
"We knew you were to come to us," the wizard king said. "A thousand years ago we knew, and have
been waiting all this time. We sent the comet to show you the way."
"We have knowledge to share with you," said a warrior in shining emerald armor, "and magic weapons
to arm you with. You have passed
every trial. Now come and sit with us, and all your questions shall be answered."
She took a step forward. But then Drogon leapt from her shoulder. He flew to the top of the
ebony-and-weirwood door, perched there, and began to bite at the carved wood.
"A willful beast," laughed a handsome young man. "Shall we teach you the secret speech of dragonkind?
Come, come."
Doubt seized her. The great door was so heavy it took all of Dany's strength to budge it, but finally it
began to move. Behind was another door, hidden. It was old grey wood, splintery and plain . . . but it
stood to the right of the door through which she'd entered. The wizards were beckoning her with voices
sweeter than song. She ran from them, Drogon flying back down to her. Through the narrow door she
passed, into a chamber awash in gloom.
A long stone table filled this room. Above it floated a human heart, swollen and blue with corruption, yet
still alive. It beat, a deep ponderous throb of sound, and each pulse sent out a wash of indigo light. The
figures around the table were no more than blue shadows. As Dany walked to the empty chair at the foot
of the table, they did not stir, nor speak, nor turn to face her. There was no sound but the slow, deep
beat of the rotting heart.
. . . mother of dragons . . . came a voice, part whisper and part moan . . . . dragons . . . dragons . . .
dragons . . . other voices echoed in the gloom. Some were male and some female. One spoke with the
timbre of a child. The floating heart pulsed from dimness to darkness. It was hard to summon the will to
speak, to recall the words she had practiced so assiduously. "I am Daenerys Stormborn of House
Targaryen, Queen of the Seven Kingdoms of Westeros." Do they hear me? Why don't they move? She
sat, folding her hands in her lap. "Grant me your counsel, and speak to me with the wisdom of those who
have conquered death."
Through the indigo murk, she could make out the wizened features of the Undying One to her right, an
old old man, wrinkled and hairless. His flesh was a ripe violet-blue, his lips and nails bluer still, so dark
they were almost black. Even the whites of his eyes were blue. They stared unseeing at the ancient
woman on the opposite side of the table, whose gown of pale silk had rotted on her body. One withered
breast was left bare in the Qartheen manner, to show a pointed blue nipple hard as leather.
She is not breathing. Dany listened to the silence. None of them are breathing, and they do not move,
and those eyes see nothing. Could it be that the Undying Ones were dead?
Her answer was a whisper as thin as a mouse's whisker. . . . we
live . . . live . . . live . . . it sounded. Myriad other voices whispered echoes . . . . and know . . . know . .
. know . . . know . . .


"I have come for the gift of truth," Dany said. "In the long hall, the things I saw . . . were they true visions,
or lies? Past things, or things to come? What did they mean?"
, * , the shape of shadows . . . morrows not yet made . . . drink from the cup of ice . . . drink from the
cup of fire . . .
, * mother of dragons . . . child of three . . .
'Three?" She did not understand.
, * three heads has the dragon . . . the ghost chorus yarnmered inside her skull with never a lip moving,
never a breath stirring the still blue air. . . . mother of dragons . . . child of storm . . . The whispers
became a swirling song. . . . three fires must you light . . . one for life and one for death and one to love . .
. Her own heart was beating in unison to the one that floated before her, blue and corrupt . . . three
mounts must you ride . . . one to bed and one to dread and one to love . . . The voices were growing
louder, she realized, and it seemed her heart was slowing, and even her breath. . . . three treasons will
you know . . . once for blood and once for gold and once for love . . .
"I don't . . ." Her voice was no more than a whisper, almost as faint as theirs. What was happening to
her? "I don't understand," she said, more loudly. Why was it so hard to talk here? "Help me. Show me."
. . . help her . . . the whispers mocked. . . . show her . . .
Then phantoms shivered through the murk, images in indigo. Viserys screamed as the molten gold ran
down his cheeks and filled his mouth. A tall lord with copper skin and silver-gold hair stood beneath the
banner of a fiery stallion, a burning city behind him. Rubies flew like drops of blood from the chest of a
dying prince, and he sank to his knees in the water and with his last breath murmured a woman's name. .
. . mother of dragons, daughter of death . . . Glowing like sunset, a red sword was raised in the hand of a
blue-eyed king who cast no shadow. A cloth dragon swayed on poles amidst a cheering crowd. From a
smoking tower, a great stone beast took wing, breathing shadow fire. . . . mother of dragons, slayer of
lies . . . Her silver was trotting through the grass, to a darkling stream beneath a sea of stars. A corpse
stood at the prow of a ship, eyes bright in his dead face, grey lips smiling sadly. A blue flower grew from
a chink in a wall of ice, and filled the air with sweetness. . . . mother of dragons, bride of fire . . .
Faster and faster the visions came, one after the other, until it seemed as if the very air had come alive.
Shadows whirled and danced inside a tent, boneless and terrible. A little girl ran barefoot toward a big
house with a red door. Mirri Maz Duur shrieked in the flames, a dragon
bursting from her brow. Behind a silver horse the bloody corpse of a naked man bounced and dragged.
A white lion ran through grass taller than a man. Beneath the Mother of Mountains, a line of naked
crones crept from a great lake and knelt shivering before her, their grey heads bowed. Ten thousand
slaves lifted bloodstained hands as she raced by on her silver, riding like the wind. "Mother!" they cried.
"Mother, mother!" They were reaching for her, touching her, tugging at her cloak, the hem of her skirt,
her foot, her leg, her breast. They wanted her, needed her, the fire, the life, and Dany gasped and opened
her arms to give herself to them . . .
But then black wings buffeted her round the head, and a scream of fury cut the indigo air, and suddenly
the visions were gone, ripped away, and Dany's gasp turned to horror. The Undying were all around her,
blue and cold, whispering as they reached for her, pulling, stroking, tugging at her clothes, touching her
with their dry cold hands, twining their fingers through her hair. All the strength had left her limbs. She
could not move. Even her heart had ceased to beat. She felt a hand on her bare breast, twisting her


nipple. Teeth found the soft skin of her throat. A mouth descended on one eye, licking, sucking, biting . .
.
Then indigo turned to orange, and whispers turned to screams. Her heart was pounding, racing, the
hands and mouths were gone, heat washed over her skin, and Dany blinked at a sudden glare. Perched
above her, the dragon spread his wings and tore at the terrible dark heart, ripping the rotten flesh to
ribbons, and when his head snapped forward, fire flew from his open jaws, bright and hot. She could
hear the shrieks of the Undying as they burned, their high thin papery voices crying out in tongues long
dead. Their flesh was crumbling parchment, their bones dry wood soaked in tallow. They danced as the
flames consumed them; they staggered and writhed and spun and raised blazing hands on high, their
fingers bright as torches.
Dany pushed herself to her feet and bulled through them. They were light as air, no more than husks, and
they fell at a touch. The whole room was ablaze by the time she reached the door. "Drogon, " she called,
and he flew to her through the fire.
Outside a long dim passageway stretched serpentine before her, lit by the flickering orange glare from
behind. Dany ran, searching for a door, a door to her right, a door to her left, any door, but there was
nothing, only twisty stone walls, and a floor that seemed to move slowly under her feet, writhing as if to
trip her. She kept her feet and ran faster, and suddenly the door was there ahead of her, a door like an
open mouth.
When she spilled out into the sun, the bright light made her stumble. Pyat Pree was gibbering in some
unknown tongue and hopping from one
foot to the other. When Dany looked behind her, she saw thin tendrils of smoke forcing their way
through cracks in the ancient stone walls of the Palace of Dust, and rising from between the black tiles of
the roof.
Howling curses, Pyat Pree drew a knife and danced toward her, but Drogon flew at his face. Then she
heard the crack of Jhogo's whip, and never was a sound so sweet. The knife went flying, and an instant
later Rakharo was slamming Pyat to the ground. Ser Jorah Mormont knelt beside Dany in the cool green
grass and put his arm around her shoulder.
Chapter 49
TYRION
If you die stupidly, I'm going to feed your body to the goats," Tyrion threatened as the first load of Stone
Crows pushed off from the quay.
Shagga laughed. "The Halfman has no goats."
"I'll get some just for YOU."
Dawn was breaking, and pale ripples of light shimmered on the surface of the river, shattering under the
poles and reforming when the ferry had passed. Timett had taken his Burned Men into the kingswood


two days before. Yesterday the Black Ears and Moon Brothers followed, today the Stone Crows.
"Whatever you do, don't try and fight a battle," Tyrion said. "Strike at their camps and baggage train.
Ambush their scouts and hang the bodies from trees ahead of their line of march, loop around and cut
down stragglers. I want night attacks, so many and so sudden that they'll be afraid to sleep-"
Shagga laid a hand atop Tyrion's head. "All this I learned from Dolf son of Holger before my beard had
grown. This is the way of war in the Mountains of the Moon."
"The kingswood is not the Mountains of the Moon, and you won't be fighting Milk Snakes and Painted
Dogs. And listen to the guides I'm sending, they know this wood as well as you know your mountains.
Heed their counsel and they'll serve you well."
"Shagga will listen to the Halfman's pets," the clansman promised
solemnly. And then it was time for him to lead his garron onto the ferry. Tyrion watched them push off
and pole out toward the center of the Blackwater. He felt a queer twinge in the pit of his stomach as
Shagga faded in the morning mist. He was going to feel naked without his clansmen.
He still had Bronn's hirelings, near eight hundred of them now, but sellswords were notoriously fickle.
Tyrion had done what he could to buy their continued loyalty, promising Bronn and a dozen of his best
men lands and knighthoods when the battle was won. They'd drunk his wine, laughed at his jests, and
called each other ser until they were all staggering . . . all but Bronn himself, who'd only smiled that
insolent dark smile of his and afterward said, "They'll kill for that knighthood, but don't ever think they'll
die for it."
Tyrion had no such delusion.
The gold cloaks were almost as uncertain a weapon. Six thousand men in the City Watch, thanks to
Cersei, but only a quarter of them could be relied upon. "There's few out-and-out traitors, though there's
some, even your spider hasn't found them all," Bywater had warned him. "But there's hundreds greener
than spring grass, men who joined for bread and ale and safety. No man likes to look craven in the sight
of his fellows, so they'll fight brave enough at the start, when it's all warhorns and blowing banners. But if
the battle looks to be going sour they'll break, and they'll break bad. The first man to throw down his
spear and run will have a thousand more trodding on his heels."
To be sure, there were seasoned men in the City Watch, the core of two thousand who'd gotten their
gold cloaks from Robert, not Cersei. Yet even those . . . a watchman was not truly a soldier, Lord Tywin
Lannister had been fond of saying. Of knights and squires and men-atarms, Tyrion had no more than
three hundred. Soon enough, he must test the truth of another of his father's sayings: One man on a wall
was worth ten beneath it.
Bronn and the escort were waiting at the foot of the quay, amidst swarming beggars, strolling whores,
and fishwives crying the catch. The fishwives did more business than all the rest combined. Buyers
flocked around the barrels and stalls to haggle over winkles, clams, and river pike. With no other food
coming into the city, the price of fish was ten times what it had been before the war, and still rising. Those
who had coin came to the riverfront each morning and each evening, in hopes of bringing home an eel or
a pot of red crabs; those who did not slipped between the stalls hoping to steal, or stood gaunt and
forlorn beneath the walls.
The gold cloaks cleared a path through the press, shoving people aside with the shafts of their spears.


Tyrion ignored the muttered curses as
best he could. A fish came sailing out of the crowd, slimy and rotten. It landed at his feet and flew to
pieces. He stepped over it gingerly and climbed into his saddle. Children with swollen bellies were
already fighting over pieces of the stinking fish.
Mounted, he gazed along the riverfront. Hammers rang in the morning air as carpenters swarmed over
the Mud Gate, extending wooden hoardings from the battlements. Those were coming well. He was a
deal less pleased by the clutter of ramshackle structures that had been allowed to grow up behind the
quays, attaching themselves to the city walls like barnacles on the hull of a ship; bait shacks and
pot-shops, warehouses, merchants' stalls, alehouses, the cribs where the cheaper sort of whores spread
their legs. It has to go, every bit of it. As it was, Stannis would hardly need scaling ladders to storm the
walls.
He called Bronn to his side. "Assemble a hundred men and burn everything you see here between the
water's edge and the city walls." He waved his stubby fingers, taking in all the waterfront squalor. "I want
nothing left standing, do you understand?"
The black-haired sellsword turned his head, considering the task. "Them as own all this won't like that
much."
"I never imagined they would. So be it; they'll have something else to curse the evil monkey demon for."
"Some may fight."
"See that they lose."
"What do we do with those that live here?"
"Let them have a reasonable time to remove their property, and then move them out. Try not to kill any
of them, they're not the enemy. And no more rapes! Keep your men in line, damn it."
"They're sellswords, not septons," said Bronn. "Next you'll be telling me you want them sober."
"It couldn't hurt."
Tyrion only wished he could as easily make city walls twice as tall and three times as thick. Though
perhaps it did not matter. Massive walls and tall towers had not saved Storm's End, nor Harrenhal, nor
even Winterfell.
He remembered Winterfell as he had last seen it. Not as grotesquely huge as Harrenhal, nor as solid and
impregnable to look at as Storm's End, yet there had been a great strength in those stones, a sense that
within those walls a man might feel safe. The news of the castle's fall had come as a wrenching shock.
"The gods give with one hand and take with the other," he muttered under his breath when Varys told
him. They had given the Starks Harrenhal and taken Winterfell, a dismal exchange.
No doubt he should be rejoicing. Robb Stark would have to turn north
now. If he could not defend his own home and hearth, he was no sort of king at all. It meant reprieve for
the west, for House Lannister, and yet . . .


Tyrion had only the vaguest memory of Theon Greyjoy from his time with the Starks. A callow youth,
always smiling, skilled with a bow; it was hard to imagine him as Lord of Winterfell. The Lord of
Winterfell would always be a Stark.
He remembered their godswood; the tall sentinels armored in their grey-green needles, the great oaks,
the hawthorn and ash and soldier pines, and at the center the heart tree standing like some pale giant
frozen in time. He could almost smell the place, earthy and brooding, the smell of centuries, and he
remembered how dark the wood had been even by day. That wood was Winterfell. It was the north. I
never felt so out of place as I did when I walked there, so much an unwelcome intruder. He wondered if
the Greyjoys would feel it too. The castle might well be theirs, but never that godswood. Not in a year,
or ten, or fifty.
Tyrion Lannister walked his horse slowly toward the Mud Gate. Winterfell is nothing to you, he
reminded himself. Be glad the place has fallen, and look to your own walls. The gate was open. Inside,
three great trebuchets stood side by side in the market square, peering over the battlements like three
huge birds. Their throwing arms were made from the trunks of old oaks, and banded with iron to keep
them from splitting. The gold cloaks had named them the Three Whores, because they'd be giving Lord
Stannis such a lusty welcome. Or so we hope.
Tyrion put his heels into his horse and trotted through the Mud Gate, breasting the human tide. Once
beyond the Whores, the press grew thinner and the street opened up around him.
The ride back to the Red Keep was uneventful, but at the Tower of the Hand he found a dozen angry
trader captains waiting in his audience chamber to protest the seizure of their ships. He gave them a
sincere apology and promised compensation once the war was done. That did little to appease them.
"What if you should lose, my lord?" one Braavosi asked.
"Then apply to King Stannis for your compensation."
By the time he rid himself of them, bells were ringing and Tyrion knew he would be late for the
installation. He waddled across the yard almost at a run and crowded into the back of the castle sept as
Joffrey fastened white silk cloaks about the shoulders of the two newest members of his Kingsguard. The
rite seemed to require that everyone stand, so Tyrion saw nothing but a wall of courtly arses. On the
other hand, once the new High Septon was finished leading the two knights through their solemn vows
and anointing them in the names of the Seven, he would be well positioned to be first out the doors.
He approved of his sister's choice of Ser Balon Swann to take the place of the slain Preston Greenfield.
The Swarms were Marcher lords, proud, powerful, and cautious. Pleading illness, Lord Gulian Swann
had remained in his castle, taking no part in the war, but his eldest son had ridden with Renly and now
Stannis, while Balon, the younger, served at King's Landing. If he'd had a third son, Tyrion suspected
he'd be off with Robb Stark. It was not perhaps the most honorable course, but it showed good sense;
whoever won the iron Throne, the Swarms intended to survive. In addition to being well born, young Ser
Balon was valiant, courtly, and skilled at arms; good with a lance, better with a morningstar, superb with
the bow. He would serve with honor and courage.
Alas, Tyrion could not say the same for Cersei's second choice. Ser Osmund Kettleblack looked
formidable enough. He stood six feet and six inches, most of it sinew and muscle, and his hook nose,
bushy eyebrows, and spade-shaped brown beard gave his face a fierce aspect, so long as he did not
smile. Lowborn, no more than a hedge knight, Kettleblack was utterly dependent on Cersei for his
advancement, which was doubtless why she'd picked him. "Ser Osmund is as loyal as he is brave," she'd
told Joffrey when she put forward his name. It was true, unfortunately. The good Ser Osmund had been


selling her secrets to Bronn since the day she'd hired him, but Tyrion could scarcely tell her that.
He supposed he ought not complain. The appointment gave him another ear close to the king,
unbeknownst to his sister. And even if Ser Osmund proved an utter craven, he would be no worse than
Ser Boros Blount, currently residing in a dungeon at Rosby. Ser Boros had been escorting Tommen and
Lord Gyles when Ser Jacelyn Bywater and his gold cloaks had surprised them, and had yielded up his
charge with an alacrity that would have enraged old Ser Barristan Selmy as much as it did Cersei; a
knight of the Kingsguard was supposed to die in defense of the king and royal family. His sister had
insisted that Joffrey strip Blount of his white cloak on the grounds of treason and cowardice. And now
she replaces him with another man just as hollow
The praying, vowing, and anointing seemed to take most of the morning. Tyrion's legs soon began to
ache. He shifted his weight from one foot to the other, restless. Lady Tanda stood several rows up, he
saw, but her daughter was not with her. He had been half hoping to catch a glimpse of Shae. Varys said
she was doing well, but he would prefer to see for himself.
"Better a lady's maid than a pot girl," Shae had said when Tyrion told her the eunuch's scheme. "Can I
take my belt of silver flowers and my gold collar with the black diamonds you said looked like my eyes?
I won't wear them if you say I shouldn't."
Loath as he was to disappoint her, Tyrion had to point out that while Lady Tanda was by no means a
clever woman, even she might wonder if her daughter's bedmaid seemed to own more jewelry than her
daughter. "Choose two or three dresses, no more," he commanded her. "Good wool, no silk, no samite,
and no fur. The rest I'll keep in my own chambers for when you visit me." It was not the answer Shae
had wanted, but at least she was safe.
When the investiture was finally done Joffrey marched out between Ser Balon and Ser Osmund in their
new white cloaks, while Tyrion lingered for a word with the new High Septon (who was his choice, and
wise enough to know who put the honey on his bread). "I want the gods on our side," Tyrion told him
bluntly. "Tell them that Stannis has vowed to burn the Great Sept of Baelor."
"Is it true, my lord?" asked the High Septon, a small, shrewd man with a wispy white beard and wizened
face.
Tyrion shrugged. "It may be. Stannis burned the godswood at Storm's End as an offering to the Lord of
Light. If he'd offend the old gods, why should he spare the new? Tell them that. Tell them that any man
who thinks to give aid to the usurper betrays the gods as well as his rightful king."
"I shall, my lord. And I shall command them to pray for the health of the king and his Hand as well."
Hallyne the Pyromancer was waiting on him when Tyrion returned to his solar, and Maester Frenken
had brought messages. He let the alchemist wait a little longer while he read what the ravens had brought
him. There was an old letter from Doran Martell, warning him that Storm's End had fallen, and a much
more intriguing one from Balon Greyjoy on Pyke, who styled himself King of the isles and the North. He
invited King Joffrey to send an envoy to the Iron Islands to fix the borders between their realms and
discuss a possible alliance.
Tyrion read the letter three times and set it aside. Lord Balon's longships would have been a great help
against the fleet sailing up from Storm's End, but they were thousands of leagues away on the wrong side
of Westeros, and Tyrion was far from certain that he wanted to give away half the realm. Perhaps I
should spill this one in Cersei's lap, or take it to the council.


Only then did he admit Hallyne with the latest tallies from the alchemists. "This cannot be true," said
Tyrion as he pored over the ledgers. "Almost thirteen thousand jars? Do you take me for a fool? I'm not
about to pay the king's gold for empty jars and pots of sewage sealed with wax, I warn you."
"No, no," Hallyne squeaked, "the sums are accurate, I swear. We have
been, hmmm, most fortunate, my lord Hand. Another cache of Lord Rossart's was found, more than
three hundred jars. Under the Dragonpit! Some whores have been using the ruins to entertain their
patrons, and one of them fell through a patch of rotted floor into a cellar. When he felt the jars, he
mistook them for wine. He was so drunk he broke the seal and drank some."
"There was a prince who tried that once," said Tyrion dryly. "I haven't seen any dragons rising over the
city, so it would seem it didn't work this time either." The Dragonpit atop the hill of Rhaenys had been
abandoned for a century and a half. He supposed it was as good a place as any to store wildfire, and
better than most, but it would have been nice if the late Lord Rossart had told someone. "Three hundred
jars, you say? That still does not account for these totals. You are several thousand jars ahead of the best
estimate you gave me when last we met."
"Yes, yes, that's so." Hallyne mopped at his pale brow with the sleeve of his black-and-scarlet robe.
"We have been working very hard, my lord Hand, hmmm."
"That would doubtless explain why you are making so much more of the substance than before." Smiling,
Tyrion fixed the pyromancer with his mismatched stare. "Though it does raise the question of why you did
not begin working hard until now."
Hallyne had the complexion of a mushroom, so it was hard to see how he could turn any paler, yet
somehow he managed. "We were, my lord Hand, my brothers and I have been laboring day and night
from the first, I assure you. it is only, hmmm, we have made so much of the substance that we have
become, hmmm, more practiced as it were, and also"-the alchemist shifted uncomfortably-" certain
spells, hmmm, ancient secrets of our order, very delicate, very troublesome, but necessary if the
substance is to be, hmmm, all it should be . . ."
Tyrion was growing impatient. Ser Jacelyn Bywater was likely here by now, and Ironhand misliked
waiting. "Yes, you have secret spells; how splendid. What of them?"
"They, hmmm, seem to be working better than they were." Hallyne smiled weakly. "You don't suppose
there are any dragons about, do you? "
"Not unless you found one under the Dragonpit. Why?"
"Oh, pardon, I was just remembering something old Wisdom Pollitor told me once, when I was an
acolyte. I'd asked him why so many of our spells seemed, well, not as effectual as the scrolls would have
us believe, and he said it was because magic had begun to go out of the world the day the last dragon
died."
"Sorry to disappoint you, but I've seen no dragons. I have noticed the
King's justice lurking about, however. Should any of these fruits you're selling me turn out to be filled
with anything but wildfire, you'll be seeing him as well."


Hallyne fled so quickly that he almost bowled over Ser Jacelyn-no, Lord Jacelyn, he must remember
that. Ironhand was mercifully direct, as ever. He'd returned from Rosby to deliver a fresh levy of
spearmen recruited from Lord Gyles's estates and resume his command of the City Watch. "How does
my nephew fare?" Tyrion asked when they were done discussing the city's defenses.
"Prince Tornmen is hale and happy, my lord. He has adopted a fawn some of my men brought home
from a hunt. He had one once before, he says, but Joffrey skinned her for a jerkin. He asks about his
mother sometimes, and often begins letters to the Princess Myrcella, though he never seems to finish any.
His brother, however, he does not seem to miss at all."
"You have made suitable arrangements for him, should the battle be lost?"
"My men have their instructions."
"Which are?"
"You commanded me to tell no one, my lord."
That made him smile. "I'm pleased you remember." Should King's Landing fall, he might well be taken
alive. Better if he did not know where Joffrey's heir might be found.
Varys appeared not long after Lord Jacelyn had left. "Men are such faithless creatures," he said by way
of greeting.
Tyrion sighed. "Who's the traitor today?"
The eunuch handed him a scroll. "So much villainy, it sings a sad song for our age. Did honor die with
our fathers?"
"My father is not dead yet." Tyrion scanned the list. "I know some of these names. These are rich men.
Traders, merchants, craftsmen. Why should they conspire against us?"
"It seems they believe that Lord Stannis must win, and wish to share his victory. They call themselves the
Antler Men, after the crowned stag."
"Someone should tell them that Stannis changed his sigil. Then they can be the Hot Hearts." It was no
matter for jests, though; it appeared that these Antler Men had armed several hundred followers, to seize
the Old Gate once battle was joined, and admit the enemy to the city. Among the names on the list was
the master armorer Salloreon. "I suppose this means I won't be getting that terrifying helm with the demon
horns," Tyrion complained as he scrawled the order for the man's arrest.
CHAPTER 50
THEON
0ne moment he was asleep; the next, awake.


Kyra nestled against him, one arm draped lightly over his, her breasts brushing his back. He could hear
her breathing, soft and steady. The sheet was tangled about them. It was the black of night. The
bedchamber was dark and still.
What is it? Did I hear something? Someone?
Wind sighed faintly against the shutters. Somewhere, far off, he heard the yowl of a cat in heat. Nothing
else. Sleep, Greyjoy, he told himself. The castle is quiet, and you have guards posted. At your door, at
the gates, on the armory.
He might have put it down to a bad dream, but he did not remember dreaming. Kyra had worn him out.
Until Theon had sent for her, she had lived all of her eighteen years in the winter town without ever setting
foot inside the walls of the castle. She came to him wet and eager and lithe as a weasel, and there had
been a certain undeniable spice to fucking a common tavern wench in Lord Eddard Stark's own bed.
She murmured sleepily as Theon slid out from under her arm and got to his feet. A few embers still
smoldered in the hearth. Wex slept on the floor at the foot of the bed, rolled up inside his cloak and dead
to the world. Nothing moved. Theon crossed to the window and threw open the shutters. Night touched
him with cold fingers, and gooseprickles rose on his bare skin. He leaned against the stone sill and looked
out on dark towers, empty yards, black sky, and more stars than a man could
ever count if he lived to be a hundred. A half-moon floated above the Bell Tower and cast its reflection
on the roof of the glass gardens. He heard no alarms, no voices, not so much as a footfall.
All's well, Greyjoy. Hear the quiet? You ought to be drunk with joy. You took Winterfell with fewer
than thirty men, a feat to sing of. Theon started back to bed. He'd roll Kyra on her back and fuck her
again, that ought to banish these phantoms. Her gasps and giggles would make a welcome respite from
this silence.
He stopped. He had grown so used to the howling of the direwolves that he scarcely heard it anymore .
. . but some part of him, some hunter's instinct, heard its absence.
Urzen stood outside his door, a sinewy man with a round shield slung over his back. "The wolves are
quiet," Theon told him. "Go see what they're doing, and come straight back." The thought of the
direwolves running loose gave him a queasy feeling. He remembered the day in the wolfswood when the
wildlings had attacked Bran. Summer and Grey Wind had torn them to pieces.
When he prodded Wex with the toe of his boot, the boy sat up and rubbed his eyes. "Make certain
Bran Stark and his little brother are in their beds, and be quick about it."
"M'lord?" Kyra called sleepily.
"Go back to sleep, this does not concern you." Theon poured himself a cup of wine and drank it down.
All the time he was listening, hoping to hear a howl. Too few men, he thought sourly. I have too few men.
lf Asha does not come . . .
Wex returned the quickest, shaking his head side to side. Cursing, Theon found his tunic and breeches
on the floor where he had dropped them in his haste to get at Kyra. Over the tunic he donned a jerkin of
iron-studded leather, and he belted a longsword and dagger at his waist. His hair was wild as the wood,
but he had larger concerns.


By then Urzen was back. "The wolves be gone."
Theon told himself he must be as cold and deliberate as Lord Eddard. "Rouse the castle," he said. "Herd
them out into the yard, everyone, we'll see who's missing. And have Lorren make a round of the gates.
Wex, with me."
He wondered if Stygg had reached Deepwood Motte yet. The man was not as skilled a rider as he
claimed-none of the ironmen were much good in the saddle-but there'd been time enough. Asha might
well be on her way. And if she leams that I have lost the Starks . . . It did not bear thinking about.
Bran's bedchamber was empty, as was Rickon's half a turn below. Theon cursed himself. He should
have kept a guard on them, but he'd
deemed it more important to have men walking the walls and protecting the gates than to nursemaid a
couple of children, one a cripple.
Outside he heard sobbing as the castle folk were pulled from their beds and driven into the yard. I'll give
them reason to sob. I've used them gently, and this is how they repay me. He'd even had two of his own
men whipped bloody for raping that kennel girl, to show them he meant to be just. They still blame me for
the rape, though. And the rest. He deemed that unfair. Mikken had killed himself with his mouth, just as
Benfred had. As for Chayle, he had to give someone to the Drowned God, his men expected it. "I bear
you no ill will," he'd told the septon before they threw him down the well, "but you and your gods have no
place here now." You'd think the others might be grateful he hadn't chosen one of them, but no. He
wondered how many of them were part of this plot against him.
Urzen returned with Black Lorren. "The Hunter's Gate," Lorren said. "Best come see."
The Hunter's Gate was conveniently sited close to the kennels and kitchens. it opened directly on fields
and forests, allowing riders to come and go without first passing through the winter town, and so was
favored by hunting parties. "Who had the guard here?" Theon demanded.
"Drennan and Squint."
Drennan was one of the men who'd raped Palla. "If they've let the boys escape, I'll have more than a
little skin off their back this time, I swear it."
"No need for that," Black Lorren said curtly.
Nor was there. They found Squint floating facedown in the moat, his entrails drifting behind him like a
nest of pale snakes. Drennan lay half naked in the gatehouse, in the snug room where the drawbridge was
worked. His throat had been opened ear to ear. A ragged tunic concealed the half-healed scars on his
back, but his boots were scattered amidst the rushes, and his breeches tangled about his feet. There was
cheese on a small table near the door, beside an empty flagon. And two cups.
Theon picked one up and sniffed at the dregs of wine in the bottom. "Squint was up on the wallwalk,
no?"
"Aye," said Lorren.
Theon flung the cup into the hearth. "I'd say Drennan was pulling down his breeches to stick it in the
woman when she stuck it in him. His own cheese knife, by the look of it. Someone find a pike and fish


the other fool out of the moat."
The other fool was in a deal worse shape than Drennan. When Black Lorren drew him out of the water,
they saw that one of his arms had been wrenched off at the elbow, half of his neck was missing, and there
was a ragged hole where his navel and groin once had been. The pike tore through his bowels as Lorren
was pulling him in. The stench was awful.
"The direwolves," Theon said. "Both of them, at a guess." Disgusted, he walked back to the drawbridge.
Winterfell was encircled by two massive granite walls, with a wide moat between them. The outer wall
stood eighty feet high, the inner more than a hundred. Lacking men, Theon had been forced to abandon
the outer defenses and post his guards along the higher inner walls. He dared not risk having them on the
wrong side of the moat should the castle rise against him.
There had to be two or more, he decided. While the woman was entertaining Drennan, the others freed
the wolves.
Theon called for a torch and led them up the steps to the wallwalk. He swept the flame low before him,
looking for . . . there. On the inside of the rampart and in the wide crenel between two upthrust merlons.
"Blood," he announced, "clumsily mopped up. At a guess, the woman killed Drennan and lowered the
drawbridge. Squint heard the clank of chains, came to have a look, and got this far. They pushed the
corpse through the crenel into the moat so he wouldn't be found by another sentry."
Urzen peered along the walls. "The other watch turrets are not far. I see torches burning-"
"Torches, but no guards," Theon said testily. "Winterfell has more turrets than I have men."
"Four guards at the main gate," said Black Lorren, "and five walking the walls beside Squint."
Urzen said, "If he had sounded his horn-"
I am served by fools. "Try and imagine it was you up here, Urzen. It's dark and cold. You have been
walking sentry for hours, looking forward to the end of your watch. Then you hear a noise and move
toward the gate, and suddenly you see eyes at the top of the stair, glowing green and gold in the
torchlight. Two shadows come rushing toward you faster than you can believe. You catch a glimpse of
teeth, start to level your spear, and they slam into you and open your belly, tearing through leather as if it
were cheesecloth." He gave Urzen a hard shove. "And now you're down on your back, your guts are
spilling out, and one of them has his teeth around your neck." Theon grabbed the man's scrawny throat,
tightened his fingers, and smiled. "Tell me, at what moment during all of this do you stop to blow your
fucking horn?" He shoved Urzen away roughly, sending him stumbling back against a merlon. The man
rubbed his throat. I should have had those beasts put down the day we took the castle, he thought
angrily. I'd seen them kill, I knew how dangerous they were.
"We must go after them," Black Lorren said.
"Not in the dark." Theon did not relish the idea of chasing direwolves through the wood by night; the
hunters could easily become the hunted. "We'll wait for daylight. Until then, I had best go speak with my
loyal subjects."
Down in the yard, a uneasy crowd of men, women, and children had been pushed up against the wall.
Many had not been given time to dress; they covered themselves with woolen blankets, or huddled


naked under cloaks or bedrobes. A dozen ironmen hemmed them in, torches in one hand and weapons
in the other. The wind was gusting, and the flickering orange light reflected dully off steel helms, thick
beards, and unsmiling eyes.
Theon walked up and down before the prisoners, studying the faces. They all looked guilty to him. "How
many are missing?"
"Six." Reek stepped up behind him, smelling of soap, his long hair moving in the wind. "Both Starks, that
bog boy and his sister, the halfwit from the stables, and your wildling woman."
Osha. He had suspected her from the moment he saw that second cup. I should have known better than
to trust that one. She's as unnatural as Asha. Even their names sound alike.
"Has anyone had a look at the stables?"
"Aggar says no horses are missing."
"Dancer is still in his stall?"
"Dancer?" Reek frowned. "Aggar says the horses are all there. Only the halfwit is missing."
They're afoot, then. That was the best news he'd heard since he woke. Bran would be riding in his
basket on Hodor's back, no doubt. Osha would need to carry Rickon; his little legs wouldn't take him far
on their own. Theon was confident that he'd soon have them back in his hands. "Bran and Rickon have
fled," he told the castle folk, watching their eyes. "Who knows where they've gone?" No one answered.
"They could not have escaped without help," Theon went on. "Without food, clothing, weapons." He had
locked away every sword and axe in Winterfell, but no doubt some had been hidden from him. "I'll have
the names of all those who aided them. All those who turned a blind eye." The only sound was the wind.
"Come first light, I mean to bring them back." He hooked his thumbs through his swordbelt. "I need
huntsmen. Who wants a nice warm wolfskin to see them through the winter? Gage?" The cook had
always greeted him cheerfully when he returned from the hunt, to ask whether he'd brought anything
choice for the table, but he had nothing to say now. Theon walked back the way he had come, searching
their faces for the least sign of guilty knowledge. "The wild is no place for a cripple. And Rickon, young
as he is, how long will he last out there? Nan, think how frightened he must be." The old woman had
nattered at
him for ten years, telling her endless stories, but now she gaped at him as if he were some stranger. "I
might have killed every man of you and given your women to my soldiers for their pleasure, but instead I
protected you. Is this the thanks you offer?" Joseth who'd groomed his horses, Farlen who'd taught him
all he knew of hounds, Barth the brewer's wife who'd been his flrst-not one of them would meet his eyes.
They hate me, he realized.
Reek stepped close. "Strip off their skins," he urged, his thick lips glistening. "Lord Bolton, he used to
say a naked man has few secrets, but a flayed man's got none."
The flayed man was the sigil of House Bolton, Theon knew; ages past, certain of their lords had gone so
far as to cloak themselves in the skins of dead enemies. A number of Starks had ended thus. Supposedly
all that had stopped a thousand years ago, when the Boltons had bent their knees to Winterfell. Or so
they say, but old ways die hard, as well I know
"There will be no flaying in the north so long as I rule in Winterfell," Theon said loudly. I am your only


protection against the likes of him, he wanted to scream. He could not be that blatant, but perhaps some
were clever enough to take the lesson.
The sky was greying over the castle walls. Dawn could not be far off. "Joseth, saddle Smiler and a horse
for yourself. Murch, Gariss, Poxy Tym, you'll come as well." Murch and Gariss were the best huntsmen
in the castle, and Tyrn was a fine bowman. "Aggar, Rednose, Gelmarr, Reek, Wex." He needed his own
to watch his back. "Farlen, I'll want hounds, and you to handle them."
The grizzled kennelmaster crossed his arms. "And why would I care to hunt down my own trueborn
lords, and babes at that?"
Theon moved close. "I am your trueborn lord now, and the man who keeps Palla safe."
He saw the deflance die in Farlen's eyes. "Aye, m'lord."
Stepping back, Theon glanced about to see who else he might add. "Maester Luwin," he announced.
"I know nothing of hunting."
No, but I don't trust you in the castle in my absence. "Then it's past time you learned."
"Let me come too. I want that wolfskin cloak." A boy stepped forward, no older than Bran. It took
Theon a moment to remember him. "I've hunted lots of times before," Walder Frey said. "Red deer and
elk, and even boar."
His cousin laughed at him. "He rode on a boar hunt with his father, but they never let him near the boar."
Theon look at the boy doubtfully. "Come if you like, but if you can't keep up, don't think that I'll nurse
you along." He turned back to Black
Lorren. "Winterfell is yours in my absence. If we do not return, do with it as you will." That bloody well
ought to have them praying for my success.
They assembled by the Hunter's Gate as the first pale rays of the sun brushed the top of the Bell Tower,
their breath frosting in the cold morning air. Gelmarr had equipped himself with a longaxe whose reach
would allow him to strike before the wolves were on him. The blade was heavy enough to kill with a
single blow. Aggar wore steel greaves. Reek arrived carrying a boar spear and an overstuffed
washerwoman's sack bulging with god knows what. Theon had his bow; he needed nothing else. Once
he had saved Bran's life with an arrow. He hoped he would not need to take it with another, but if it
came to that, he would.
Eleven men, two boys, and a dozen dogs crossed the moat. Beyond the outer wall, the tracks were plain
to read in the soft ground; the pawprints of the wolves, Hodor's heavy tread, the shallower marks left by
the feet of the two Reeds. Once under the trees, the stony ground and fallen leaves made the trail harder
to see, but by then Farlen's red bitch had the scent. The rest of the dogs were close behind, the hounds
sniffing and barking, a pair of monstrous mastiffs bringing up the rear. Their size and ferocity might make
the difference against a cornered direwolf.
He'd have guessed that Osha might run south to Ser Rodrik, but the trail led north by northwest, into the
very heart of the wolfswood. Theon did not like that one bit. It would be a bitter irony if the Starks made
for Deepwood Motte and delivered themselves right into Asha's hands. I'd sooner have them dead, he


thought bitterly. It is better to be seen as cruel than foolish.
Wisps of pale mist threaded between the trees. Sentinels and soldier pines grew thick about here, and
there was nothing as dark and gloomy as an evergreen forest. The ground was uneven, and the fallen
needles disguised the softness of the turf and made the footing treacherous for the horses, so they had to
go slowly. Not as slowly as a man carrying a cripple, though, or a bony harridan with a four-year-old on
her back. He told himself to be patient. He'd have them before the day was out.
Maester Luwin trotted up to him as they were following a game trail along the lip of a ravine. "Thus far
hunting seems indistinguishable from riding through the woods, my lord."
Theon smiled. "There are similarities. But with hunting, there's blood at the end."
"Must it be so? This flight was great folly, but will you not be merciful? These are your foster brothers
we seek."
"No Stark but Robb was ever brotherly toward me, but Bran and Rickon have more value to me living
than dead."
"The same is true of the Reeds. Moat Cailin sits on the edge of the
bogs. Lord Howland can make your uncle's occupation a visit to hell if he chooses, but so long as you
hold his heirs he must stay his hand."
Theon had not considered that. In truth, he had scarcely considered the mudmen at all, beyond eyeing
Meera once or twice and wondering if she was still a maiden. "You may be right. We will spare them if
we can."
"And Hodor too, I hope. The boy is simple, you know that. He does as he is told. How many times has
he groomed your horse, soaped your saddle, scoured your mail?"
Hodor was nothing to him. "if he does not fight us, we will let him live." Theon pointed a finger. "But say
one word about sparing the wildling, and you can die with her. She swore me an oath, and pissed on it."
The maester inclined his head. "I make no apologies for oathbreakers. Do what you must. I thank you
for your mercy."
Mercy, thought Theon as Luwin dropped back. There's a bloody trap. Too much and they call you
weak, too little and you're monstrous. Yet the maester had given him good counsel, he knew. His father
thought only in terms of conquest, but what good was it to take a kingdom if you could not hold it? Force
and fear could carry you only so far. A pity Ned Stark had taken his daughters south; elsewise Theon
could have tightened his grip on Winterfell by marrying one of them. Sansa was a pretty little thing too,
and by now likely even ripe for bedding. But she was a thousand leagues away, in the clutches of the
Lannisters. A shame.
The wood grew ever wilder. The pines and sentinels gave way to huge dark oaks. Tangles of hawthorn
concealed treacherous gullies and cuts. Stony hills rose and fell. They passed a crofter's cottage, deserted
and overgown, and skirted a flooded quarry where the still water had a sheen as grey as steel. When the
dogs began to bay, Theon figured the fugitives were near at hand. He spurred Smiler and followed at a
trot, but what he found was only the carcass of a young elk . . . or what remained of it.


He dismounted for a closer look. The kill was still fresh, and plainly the work of wolves. The dogs
sniffed round it eagerly, and one of the mastiffs buried his teeth in a haunch until Farlen shouted him off.
No part of this animal has been butchered, Theon realized. The wolves ate, but not the men. Even if
Osha did not want to risk a fire, she ought to have cut them a few steaks. It made no sense to leave so
much good meat to rot. "Farlen, are you certain we're on the right trail?" he demanded. "Could your dogs
be chasing the wrong wolves?"
"My bitch knows the smell of Summer and Shaggy well enough."
"I hope so. For your sake."
Less than an hour later, the trail led down a slope toward a muddy brook swollen by the recent rains. It
was there the dogs lost the scent. Farlen and Wex waded across with the hounds and came back shaking
their heads while the animals ranged up and down the far bank, sniffing. "They went in here, m'lord, but I
can't see where they come out," the kennelmaster said.
Theon dismounted and knelt beside the stream. He dipped a hand in it. The water was cold. "They won't
have stayed long in this," he said. "Take half the dogs downstream, I'll go up-"
Wex clapped his hands together loudly.
"What is it?" Theon said.
The mute boy pointed.
The ground near the water was sodden and muddy. The tracks the wolves had left were plain enough.
"Pawprints, yes. So?"
Wex drove his heel into the mud, and pivoted his foot this way and that. It left a deep gouge.
Joseth understood. "A man the size of Hodor ought to have left a deep print in this mud," he said. "More
so with the weight of a boy on his back. Yet the only boot prints here are our own. See for yourself."
Appalled, Theon saw it was true. The wolves had gone into the turgid brown water alone. "Osha must
have turned aside back of us. Before the elk, most likely. She sent the wolves on by themselves, hoping
we'd chase after them." He rounded on his huntsmen. "If you two have played me false-"
"There's been only the one trail, my lord, I swear it," said Gariss defensively. "And the direwolves would
never have parted from them boys. Not for long."
That's so, Theon thought. Summer and Shaggydog might have gone off to hunt, but soon or late they
would return to Bran and Rickon. "Gariss, Murch, take four dogs and double back, find where we lost
them. Aggar, you watch them, I'll have no trickery. Farlen and I will follow the direwolves. Give a blast
on the horn when you pick up the trail. Two blasts if you catch sight of the beasts themselves. Once we
find where they went, they'll lead us back to their masters."
He took Wex, the Frey boy, and Gynir Rednose to search upstream. He and Wex rode on one side of
the brook, Rednose and Walder Frey on the other, each with a pair of hounds. The wolves might have
come out on either bank. Theon kept an eye out for tracks, spoor, broken branches, any hint as to where
the direwolves might have left the water. He spied the prints of deer, elk, and badger easily enough. Wex


surprised a vixen drinking at the stream, and Walder flushed three rabbits from the underbrush and
managed to put an arrow in one. They saw the claw marks where a bear had shredded the bark of a tall
birch. But of the direwolves there was no sign.
A little farther, Theon told himself. Past that oak, over that rise, past the next bend of the stream, we'll
find something there. He pressed on
long after he knew he should turn back, a growing sense of anxiety gnawing at his belly. It was midday
when he wrenched Smiler's head round in disgust and gave up.
Somehow Osha and the wretched boys were eluding him. It should not have been possible, not on foot,
burdened with a cripple and a young child. Every passing hour increased the likelihood that they would
make good their escape. If they reach a village . . . The people of the north would never deny Ned
Stark's sons, Robb's brothers. They'd have mounts to speed them on their way, food. Men would fight
for the honor of protecting them. The whole bloody north would rally around them.
The wolves went downstream, that's all. He clung to that thought. That red bitch will sniff where they
came out of the water and we'll be after them again.
But when they joined up with Farlen's party, one look at the kennelmaster's face smashed all of Theon's
hopes to shards. "The only thing those dogs are flt for is a bear baiting," he said angrily. "Would that I had
a bear."
"The dogs are not at fault." Farlen knelt between a mastiff and his precious red bitch, a hand on each.
"Running water don't hold no scents, m'lord."
"The wolves had to come out of the stream somewhere."
"No doubt they did. Upstream or down. We keep on, we'll find the place, but which way?"
"I never knew a wolf to run up a streambed for miles," said Reek. "A man might. If he knew he was
being hunted, he might. But a wolf?"
Yet Theon wondered. These beasts were not as other wolves. I should have skinned the cursed things.
It was the same tale all over again when they rejoined Gariss, Murch, and Aggar. The huntsmen had
retraced their steps halfway to Winterfell without finding any sign of where the Starks might have parted
company with the direwolves. Farlen's hounds seemed as frustrated as their masters, sniffing forlornly at
trees and rocks and snapping irritably at each other.
Theon dared not admit defeat. "We'll return to the brook. Search again. This time we'll go as far as we
must."
"We won't find them," the Frey boy said suddenly. "Not so long as the frogeaters are with them.
Mudmen are sneaks, they won't fight like decent folks, they skulk and use poison arrows, You never see
them, but they see you. Those who go into the bogs after them get lost and never come out. Their houses
move, even the castles like Greywater Watch." He glanced nervously at greenery that encircled them on
all sides. "They might be out there right now, listening to everything we say."
Farlen laughed to show what he thought of that notion. "My dogs


would smell anything in them bushes. Be all over them before you could break wind, boy."
"Frogeaters don't smell like men," Frey insisted. "They have a boggy stink, like frogs and trees and
scummy water. Moss grows under their arms in place of hair, and they can live with nothing to eat but
mud and breathe swamp water."
Theon was about to tell him what he ought to do with his wet nurse's fable when Maester Luwin spoke
up. "The histories say the crannogmen grew close to the children of the forest in the days when the
greenseers tried to bring the hammer of the waters down upon the Neck. It may be that they have secret
knowledge."
Suddenly the wood seemed a deal darker than it had a moment before, as if a cloud had passed before
the sun. It was one thing to have some fool boy spouting folly, but maesters were supposed to be wise.
"The only children that concern me are Bran and Rickon," Theon said. "Back to the stream. Now."
For a moment he did not think they were going to obey, but in the end old habit asserted itself. They
followed sullenly, but they followed. The Frey boy was as jumpy as those rabbits he'd flushed earlier.
Theon put men on either bank and followed the current. They rode for miles, going slow and careful,
dismounting to lead the horses over treacherous ground, letting the good-for-bear-bait hounds sniff at
every bush. Where a fallen tree dammed the flow, the hunters were forced to loop around a deep green
pool, but if the direwolves had done the same they'd left neither print nor spoor. The beasts had taken to
swimming, it seemed. When I catch them, they'll have all the swimming they can stomach. I'll give them
both to the Drowned God.
When the woods began to darken, Theon Greyjoy knew he was beaten. Either the crannogmen did
know the magic of the children of the forest, or else Osha had deceived them with some wildling trick.
He made them press on through the dusk, but when the last light faded Joseth finally worked up the
courage to say, "This is fruitless, my lord. We will lame a horse, break a leg."
"Joseth has the right of it," said Maester Luwin. "Groping through the woods by torchlight will avail us
nothing."
Theon could taste bile at the back of his throat, and his stomach was a nest of snakes twining and
snapping at each other. If he crept back to Winterfell empty-handed, he might as well dress in motley
henceforth and wear a pointed hat; the whole north would know him for a fool. And when my father
hears, and Asha . . .
"M'lord prince." Reek urged his horse near. "Might be them Starks never came this way. If I was them, I
would have gone north and east, maybe. To the Umbers. Good Stark men, they are. But their lands are a
long way. The boys will shelter someplace nearer. Might be I know where."
Theon looked at him suspiciously. "Tell me."
"You know that old mill, sitting lonely on the Acorn Water? We stopped there when I was being
dragged to Winterfell a captive. The miller's wife sold us hay for our horses while that old knight clucked
over her brats. Might be the Starks are hiding there."
Theon knew the mill. He had even tumbled the miller's wife a time or two. There was nothing special
about it, or her. "Why there? There are a dozen villages and holdfasts just as close."


Amusement shone in those pale eyes. "Why? Now that's past knowing. But they're there, I have a
feeling."
He was growing sick of the man's sly answers. His lips look like two worms fucking. "What are you
saying? If you've kept some knowledge from me-"
"M'Iord prince?" Reek dismounted, and beckoned Theon to do the same. When they were both afoot,
he pulled open the cloth sack he'd fetched from Winterfell. "Have a look here."
It was growing hard to see. Theon thrust his hand into the sack impatiently, groping amongst soft fur and
rough scratchy wool. A sharp point pricked his skin, and his fingers closed around something cold and
hard. He drew out a wolf's-head brooch, silver and jet. Understanding came suddenly. His hand closed
into a fist. "Gelmarr," he said, wondering whom he could trust. None of them. "Aggar. Rednose. With us.
The rest of you may return to Winterfell with the hounds. I'll have no further need of them. I know where
Bran and Rickon are hiding now."
"Prince Theon," Maester Luwin entreated, "you will remember your promise? Mercy, you said."
"Mercy was for this morning," said Theon. It is better to be feared than laughed at. "Before they made
me angry."
CHAPTER 51
JON
They could see the fire in the night, glimmering against the side of the mountain like a fallen star. It burned
redder than the other stars, and did not twinkle, though sometimes it flared up bright and sometimes
dwindled down to no more than a distant spark, dull and faint.
Half a mile ahead and two thousand feet up, Jon judged, and perfectly placed to see anything moving in
the pass below
"Watchers in the Skirling Pass," wondered the oldest among them. In the spring of his youth, he had
been squire to a king, so the black brothers still called him Squire Dalbridge. "What is it Mance Rayder
fears, I wonder? "
"If he knew they'd lit a fire, he'd flay the poor bastards," said Ebben, a squat bald man muscled like a
bag of rocks.
"Fire is life up here," said Qhorin Halfhand, "but it can be death as well." By his command, they'd risked
no open flames since entering the mountains. They ate cold salt beef, hard bread, and harder cheese, and
slept clothed and huddled beneath a pile of cloaks and furs, grateful for each other's warmth. It made Jon
remember cold nights long ago at Winterfell, when he'd shared a bed with his brothers. These men were
brothers too, though the bed they shared was stone and earth.
"They'll have a horn," said Stonesnake.


The Halfhand said, "A horn they must not blow."
"That's a long cruel climb by night," Ebben said as he eyed the distant
spark through a cleft in the rocks that sheltered them. The sky was cloudless, the jagged mountains rising
black on black until the very top, where their cold crowns of snow and ice shone palely in the moonlight.
"And a longer fall," said Qhorin Halfhand. "Two men, I think. There are like to be two up there, sharing
the watch."
"Me." The ranger they called Stonesnake had already shown that he was the best climber among them.
It would have to be him.
"And me," said Jon Snow.
Qhorin Halfhand looked at him. Jon could hear the wind keening as it shivered through the high pass
above them. one of the garrons whickered and pawed at the thin stony soil of the hollow where they had
taken shelter. "The wolf will remain with us," Qhorin said. "White fur is seen too easily by moonlight." He
turned to Stonesnake. "When it's done, throw down a burning brand. We'll come when we see it fall."
"No better time to start than now," said Stonesnake.
They each took a long coil of rope. Stonesnake carried a bag of iron spikes as well, and a small hammer
with its head wrapped in thick felt. Their garrons they left behind, along with their helms, mail, and Ghost.
Jon knelt and let the direwolf nuzzle him before they set off. "Stay," he commanded. "I'll be back for
you."
Stonesnake took the lead. He was a short wiry man, near fifty and grey of beard but stronger than he
seemed, and he had the best night eyes of anyone Jon had ever known. He needed them tonight. By day
the mountains were blue-grey, brushed with frost, but once the sun vanished behind the jagged peaks
they turned black. Now the rising moon had linmed them in white and silver.
The black brothers moved through black shadows amidst black rocks, working their way up a steep,
twisting trail as their breath frosted in the black air. Jon felt almost naked without his mail, but he did not
miss its weight. This was hard going, and slow. To hurry here was to risk a broken ankle or worse.
Stonesnake seemed to know where to put his feet as if by instinct, but Jon needed to be more careful on
the broken, uneven ground.
The Skirling Pass was really a series of passes, a long twisting course that went up around a succession
of icy wind-carved peaks and down through hidden valleys that seldom saw the sun. Apart from his
companions, Jon had glimpsed no living man since they'd left the wood behind and begun to make their
way upward. The Frostfangs were as cruel as any place the gods had made, and as inimical to men. The
wind cut like a knife up here, and shrilled in the night like a mother mourning her slain children. What few
trees they saw were stunted, grotesque things growing sideways out of cracks and fissures. Tumbled
shelves of rock often
overhung the trail, fringed with hanging icicles that looked like long white teeth from a distance.
Yet even so, Jon Snow was not sorry he had come. There were wonders here as well. He had seen
sunlight flashing on icy thin waterfalls as they plunged over the lips of sheer stone cliffs, and a mountain
meadow full of autumn wildflowers, blue coldsnaps and bright scarlet frostfires and stands of piper's


grass in russet and gold. He had peered down ravines so deep and black they seemed certain to end in
some hell, and he had ridden his garron over a wind-eaten bridge of natural stone with nothing but sky to
either side. Eagles nested in the heights and came down to hunt the valleys, circling effortlessly on great
blue-grey wings that seemed almost part of the sky. Once he had watched a shadowcat stalk a ram,
flowing down the mountainside like liquid smoke until it was ready to pounce.
Now it is our turn to pounce. He wished he could move as sure and silent as that shadowcat, and kill as
quickly. Longclaw was sheathed across his back, but he might not have room to use it. He carried dirk
and dagger for closer work. They will have weapons as well, and I am not armored. He wondered who
would prove the shadowcat by night's end, and who the ram.
For a long way they stayed to the trail, following its twists and turns as it snaked along the side of the
mountain, upward, ever upward. Sometimes the mountain folded back on itself and they lost sight of the
fire, but soon or late it would always reappear. The path Stonesnake chose would never have served for
the horses. In places Jon had to put his back to the cold stone and shuffle along sideways like a crab,
inch by inch. Even where the track widened it was treacherous; there were cracks big enough to swallow
a man's leg, rubble to stumble over, hollow places where the water pooled by day and froze hard by
night. One step and then another, Jon told himself. One step and then another, and I will not fall.
He had not shaved since leaving the Fist of the First Men, and the hair on his lip was soon stiff with frost.
Two hours into the climb, the wind kicked up so fiercely that it was all he could do to hunch down and
cling to the rock, praying he would not be blown off the mountain. One step and then another, he
resumed when the gale subsided. One step and then another, and I will not fall.
Soon they were high enough so that looking down was best not considered. There was nothing below
but yawning blackness, nothing above but moon and stars. "The mountain is your mother," Stonesnake
had told him during an easier climb a few days past. "Cling to her, press your face up against her teats,
and she won't drop you." Jon had made a joke of
it, saying how he'd always wondered who his mother was, but never thought to find her in the
Frostfangs. It did not seem nearly so amusing now. One step and then another, he thought, clinging tight.
The narrow track ended abruptly where a massive shoulder of black granite thrust out from the side of
the mountain. After the bright moonlight, its shadow was so black that it felt like stepping into a cave.
"Straight up here," the ranger said in a quiet voice. "We want to get above them." He peeled off his
gloves, tucked them through his belt, tied one end of his rope around his waist, the other end around Jon.
"Follow me when the rope grows taut." The ranger did not wait for an answer but started at once,
moving upward with fingers and feet, faster than Jon would have believed. The long rope unwound
slowly. Jon watched him closely, making note of how he went, and where he found each handhold, and
when the last loop of hemp uncoiled, he took off his own gloves and followed, much more slowly.
Stonesnake had passed the rope around the smooth spike of rock he was waiting on, but as soon as Jon
reached him he shook it loose and was off again. This time there was no convenient cleft when he
reached the end of their tether, so he took out his felt-headed hammer and drove a spike deep into a
crack in the stone with a series of gentle taps. Soft as the sounds were, they echoed off the stone so
loudly that Jon winced with every blow, certain that the wildlings must hear them too. When the spike
was secure, Stonesnake secured the rope to it, and Jon started after him. Suck on the mountain's teat, he
reminded himself. Don't look down. Keep your weight above your feet. Don't look down. Look at the
rock in front of you. There's a good handhold, yes. Don't look down. I can catch a breath on that ledge
there, all I need to do is reach it. Never look down.


Once his foot slipped as he put his weight on it and his heart stopped in his chest, but the gods were
good and he did not fall. He could feel the cold seeping off the rock into his fingers, but he dared not don
his gloves; gloves would slip, no matter how tight they seemed, cloth and fur moving between skin and
stone, and up here that could kill him. His burned hand was stiffening up on him, and soon it began to
ache. Then he ripped open his thumbnail somehow, and after that he left smears of blood wherever he
put his hand. He hoped he still had all his fingers by the end of the climb.
Up they went, and up, and up, black shadows creeping across the moonlit wall of rock. Anyone down
on the floor of the pass could have seen them easily, but the mountain hid them from the view of the
wildlings by their fire. They were close now, though. Jon could sense it. Even so, he did not think of the
foes who were waiting for him, all unknowing,
but of his brother at Winterfell. Bran used to love to climb. I wish I had a tenth part of his courage.
The wall was broken two-thirds of the way up by a crooked fissure of icy stone. Stonesnake reached
down a hand to help him up. He had donned his gloves again, so Jon did the same. The ranger moved his
head to the left, and the two of them crawled along the shelf three hundred yards or more, until they
could see the dull orange glow beyond the lip of the cliff.
The wildlings had built their watchfire in a shallow depression above the narrowest part of the pass, with
a sheer drop below and rock behind to shelter them from the worst of the wind. That same windbreak
allowed the black brothers to crawl within a few feet of them, creeping along on their bellies until they
were looking down on the men they must kill.
One was asleep, curled up tight and buried beneath a great mound of skins. Jon could see nothing of him
but his hair, bright red in the firelight. The second sat close to the flames, feeding them twigs and branches
and complaining of the wind in a querulous tone. The third watched the pass, though thele was little to
see, only a vast bowl of darkness ringed by the snowy shoulders of the mountains. It was the watcher
who wore the horn.
Three. For a moment Jon was uncertain. There was only supposed to be two. One was asleep, though.
And whether there was two or three or twenty, he still must do what he had come to do. Stonesnake
touched his arm, pointed at the wildling with the horn. Jon nodded toward the one by the fire. It felt
queer, picking a man to kill. Half the days of his life had been spent with sword and shield, training for
this moment. Did Robb feel this way before his first battle? he wondered, but there was no time to
ponder the question. Stonesnake moved as fast as his namesake, leaping down on the wildlings in a rain
of pebbles. Jon slid Longclaw from its sheath and followed.
It all seemed to happen in a heartbeat. Afterward Jon could admire the courage of the wildling who
reached first for his horn instead of his blade. He got it to his lips, but before he could sound it
Stonesnake knocked the horn aside with a swipe of his shortsword. Jon's man leapt to his feet, thrusting
at his face with a burning brand. He could feel the heat of the flames as he flinched back. Out of the
corner of his eye, he saw the sleeper stirring, and knew he must finish his man quick. When the brand
swung again, he bulled into it, swinging the bastard sword with both hands. The Valyrian steel sheared
through leather, fur, wool, and flesh, but when the wildling fell he twisted, ripping the sword from Jon's
grasp. On the ground the sleeper sat up beneath his furs. Jon slid his
dirk free, grabbing the man by the hair and jamming the point of the knife up under his chin as he
reached for his-no, her-
His hand froze. "A girl."


"A watcher," said Stonesnake. "A wildling. Finish her."
Jon could see fear and fire in her eyes. Blood ran down her white throat from where the point of his dirk
had pricked her. One thrust and it's done, he told himself. He was so close he could smell onion on her
breath. She is no older than I am. Something about her made him think of Arya, though they looked
nothing at all alike. "Will you yield?" he asked, giving the dirk a half turn. And if she doesn't?
"I yield." Her words steamed in the cold air.
"You're our captive, then." He pulled the dirk away from the soft skin of her throat.
"Qhorin said nothing of taking captives," said Stonesnake.
"He never said not to." Jon let go his grip on the girl's hair, and she scuttled backward, away from them.
"She's a spearwife." Stonesnake gestured at the long-hafted axe that lay beside her sleeping furs. "She
was reaching for that when you grabbed her. Give her half a chance and she'll bury it between your
eyes."
"I won't give her half a chance." Jon kicked the axe well out of the girl's reach. "Do you have a name?"
"Ygritte." Her hand rubbed at her throat and came away bloody. She stared at the wetness.
Sheathing his dirk, he wrenched Longclaw free from the body of the man he'd killed. "You are my
captive, Ygritte."
"I gave you my name."
"I'm Jon Snow."
She flinched. "An evil name."
"A bastard name," he said. "My father was Lord Eddard Stark of Winterfell."
The girl watched him warily, but Stonesnake gave a mordant chuckle. "It's the captive supposed to tell
things, remember?" The ranger thrust a long branch into the fire. "Not that she will. I've known wildlings
to bite off their own tongues before they'd answer a question." When the end of the branch was blazing
merrily, he took two steps and flung it out over the pass. It fell through the night spinning until it was lost
to sight.
"You ought to burn them you killed," said Ygritte.
"Need a bigger fire for that, and big fires burn bright." Stonesnake turned, his eyes scanning the black
distance for any spark of light. "Are there more wildlings close by, is that it?"
"Burn them," the girl repeated stubbornly, "or it might be you'll need them swords again."
Jon remembered dead Othor and his cold black hands. "Maybe we should do as she says."
"There are other ways." Stonesnake knelt beside the man he'd slain, stripped him of cloak and boots and


belt and vest, then hoisted the body over one thin shoulder and carried it to the edge. He grunted as he
tossed it over. A moment later they heard a wet, heavy smack well below them. By then the ranger had
the second body down to the skin and was dragging it by the arms. Jon took the feet and together they
flung the dead man out in the blackness of the night.
Ygritte watched and said nothing. She was older than he'd thought at first, Jon realized; maybe as old as
twenty, but short for her age, bandylegged, with a round face, small hands, and a pug nose. Her shaggy
mop of red hair stuck out in all directions. She looked plump as she crouched there, but most of that was
layers of fur and wool and leather. Underneath all that she could be as skinny as Arya.
"Were you sent to watch for us?" Jon asked her.
"You, and others."
Stonesnake warmed his hands over the fire. "What waits beyond the pass?"
"The free folk."
"How many?"
"Hundreds and thousands. More than you ever saw, crow." She smiled. Her teeth were crooked, but
very white.
She doesn't know how many. "Why come here?"
Ygritte fell silent.
"What's in the Frostfangs that your king could want? You can't stay here, there's no food."
She turned her face away from him.
"Do you mean to march on the Wall? When?"
She stared at the flames as if she could not hear him.
"Do you know anything of my uncle, Benjen Stark?"
Ygritte ignored him. Stonesnake laughed. "if she spits out her tongue, don't say I didn't warn you."
A low rumbling growl echoed off the rock. Shadowcat, Jon knew at once. As he rose he heard another,
closer at hand. He pulled his sword and turned, listening.
"They won't trouble us," Ygritte said. "It's the dead they've come for. Cats can smell blood six miles off.
They'll stay near the bodies till they've eaten every last stringy shred o' meat, and cracked the bones for
the marrow."
Jon could hear the sounds of their feeding echoing off the rocks. it gave him an uneasy feeling. The
warmth of the fire made him realize how
bone-tired he was, but he dared not sleep. He had taken a captive, and it was on him to guard her.
"Were they your kin?" he asked her quietly. "The two we killed?"


"No more than you are."
"Me?" He frowned. "What do you mean?"
"You said you were the Bastard o' Winterfell."
"I am."
"Who was your mother?"
"Some woman. Most of them are." Someone had said that to him once. He did not remember who.
She smiled again, a flash of white teeth. "And she never sung you the song o' the winter rose?"
"I never knew my mother. Or any such song."
"Bael the Bard made it," said Ygritte. "He was King-beyond-the--Wall a long time back. All the free
folk know his songs, but might be you don't sing them in the south."
"Winterfell's not in the south," Jon objected.
"Yes it is. Everything below the Wall's south to us."
He had never thought of it that way. "I suppose it's all in where you're standing."
"Aye," Ygritte agreed. "It always is."
"Tell me," Jon urged her. it would be hours before Qhorin came up, and a story would help keep him
awake. "I want to hear this tale of yours."
"Might be you won't like it much."
"I'll hear it all the same."
"Brave black crow," she mocked. "Well, long before he was king over the free folk, Bael was a great
raider."
Stonesnake gave a snort. "A murderer, robber, and raper, is what you mean."
"That's all in where you're standing too," Ygritte said. "The Stark in Winterfell wanted Bael's head, but
never could take him, and the taste o' failure galled him. One day in his bitterness he called Bael a craven
who preyed only on the weak. When word o' that got back, Bael vowed to teach the lord a lesson. So
he scaled the Wall, skipped down the kingsroad, and walked into Winterfell one winter's night with harp
in hand, naming himself Sygerrik of Skagos. Sygerrik means 'deceiver' in the Old Tongue, that the First
Men spoke, and the giants still speak.
"North or south, singers always find a ready welcome, so Bael ate at Lord Stark's own table, and
played for the lord in his high seat until half the night was gone. The old songs he played, and new ones
he'd made himself, and he played and sang so well that when he was done, the lord offered to let him
name his own reward. 'All I ask is a flower/


Bael answered, 'the fairest flower that blooms in the gardens o' Winterfell.'
"Now as it happened the winter roses had only then come into bloom, and no flower is so rare nor
precious. So the Stark sent to his glass gardens and commanded that the most beautiful o' the winter
roses be plucked for the singer's payment. And so it was done. But when morning come, the singer had
vanished . . . and so had Lord Brandon's maiden daughter. Her bed they found empty, but for the pale
blue rose that Bael had left on the pillow where her head had lain."
Jon had never heard this tale before. "Which Brandon was this supposed to be? Brandon the Builder
lived in the Age of Heroes, thousands of years before Bael. There was Brandon the Burner and his father
Brandon the Shipwright, but-"
"This was Brandon the Daughterless," Ygritte said sharply. "Would you hear the tale, or no?"
He scowled. "Go on."
"Lord Brandon had no other children. At his behest, the black crows flew forth from their castles in the
hundreds, but nowhere could they find any sign o' Bael or this maid. For most a year they searched, till
the lord lost heart and took to his bed, and it seemed as though the line o' Starks was at its end. But one
night as he lay waiting to die, Lord Brandon heard a child's cry. He followed the sound and found his
daughter back in her bedchamber, asleep with a babe at her breast."
"Bael had brought her back?"
"No. They had been in Winterfell all the time, hiding with the dead beneath the castle. The maid loved
Bael so dearly she bore him a son, the song says . . . though if truth be told, all the maids love Bael in
them songs he wrote. Be that as it may, what's certain is that Bael left the child in payment for the rose
he'd plucked unasked, and that the boy grew to be the next Lord Stark. So there it is-you have Bael's
blood in you, same as me."
"It never happened," Jon said.
She shrugged. "Might be it did, might be it didn't. It is a good song, though. My mother used to sing it to
me. She was a woman too, Jon Snow. Like yours." She rubbed her throat where his dirk had cut her.
"The song ends when they find the babe, but there is a darker end to the story. Thirty years later, when
Bael was King-beyond-the-Wall and led the free folk south, it was young Lord Stark who met him at the
Frozen Ford . . . and killed him, for Bael would not harm his own son when they met sword to sword."
"So the son slew the father instead," said Jon.
"Aye," she said, "but the gods hate kinslayers, even when they kill unknowing. When Lord Stark
returned from the battle and his mother
saw Bael's head upon his spear, she threw herself from a tower in her grief. Her son did not long outlive
her. One o' his lords peeled the skin off him and wore him for a cloak."
"Your Bael was a liar," he told her, certain now.
"No," Ygritte said, "but a bard's truth is different than yours or mine. Anyway, you asked for the story,
so I told it." She turned away from him, closed her eyes, and seemed to sleep.


Dawn and Qhorin Halfhand arrived together. The black stones had turned to grey and the eastern sky
had gone indigo when Stonesnake spied the rangers below, wending their way upward. Jon woke his
captive and held her by the arm as they descended to meet them. Thankfully, there was another way off
the mountain to the north and west, along paths much gentler than the one that had brought them up here.
They were waiting in a narrow defile when their brothers appeared, leading their garrons. Ghost raced
ahead at first scent of them. Jon squatted to let the direwolf close his jaws around his wrist, tugging his
hand back and forth. It was a game they played. But when he glanced up, he saw Ygritte watching with
eyes as wide and white as hen's eggs.
Qhorin Halfhand made no comment when he saw the prisoner. "There were three," Stonesnake told him.
No more than that.
"We passed two," Ebben said, "or what the cats had left of them." He eyed the girl sourly, suspicion
plain on his face.
"She yielded," Jon felt compelled to say.
Qhorin's face was impassive. "Do you know who I am?"
"Qhorin Halfhand." The girl looked half a child beside him, but she faced him boldly.
"Tell me true. If I fell into the hands of your people and yielded myself, what would it win me?"
"A slower death than elsewise."
The big ranger looked to Jon. "We have no food to feed her, nor can we spare a man to watch her."
"The way before us is perilous enough, lad," said Squire Dalbridge. "One shout when we need silence,
and every man of us is doomed."
Ebben drew his dagger. "A steel kiss will keep her quiet."
Jon's throat was raw. He looked at them all helplessly. "She yielded herself to me."
"Then you must do what needs be done," Qhorin Halfhand said. "You are the blood of Winterfell and a
man of the Night's Watch." He looked at the others. "Come, brothers. Leave him to it. It will go easier
for him if we do not watch." And he led them up the steep twisting trail toward the pale pink glow of the
sun where it broke through a mountain cleft, and before very long only Jon and Ghost remained with the
wildling girl.
He thought Ygritte might try to run, but she only stood there, waiting,
looking at him. "You never killed a woman before, did you?" When he shook his head, she said, "We
die the same as men. But you don't need to do it. Mance would take you, I know he would. There's
secret ways. Them crows would never catch us."
"I'm as much a crow as they are," Jon said.
She nodded, resigned. "Will you burn me, after?"


"I can't. The smoke might be seen."
"That's so." She shrugged. "Well, there's worse places to end up than the belly of a shadowcat."
He pulled Longclaw over a shoulder. "Aren't you afraid?"
"Last night I was," she admitted. "But now the sun's up." She pushed her hair aside to bare her neck, and
knelt before him. "Strike hard and true, crow, or I'll come back and haunt you."
Longclaw was not so long or heavy a sword as his father's Ice, but it was Valyrian steel all the same. He
touched the edge of the blade to mark where the blow must fall, and Ygritte shivered. "That's cold," she
said. "Go on, be quick about it."
He raised Longclaw over his head, both hands tight around the grip. One cut, with all my weight behind
it. He could give her a quick clean death, at least. He was his father's son. Wasn't he? Wasn't he?
"Do it," she urged him after a moment. "Bastard. Do it. I can't stay brave forever." When the blow did
not fall she turned her head to look at him.
Jon lowered his sword. "Go," he muttered.
Ygritte stared.
"Now," he said, "before my wits return. Go."
She went.
CHAPTER 52
SANSA
The southern sky was black with smoke. It rose swirling off a hundred distant fires, its sooty fingers
smudging out the stars. Across the Blackwater Rush, a line of flame burned nightly from horizon to
horizon, while on this side the Imp had fired the whole riverfront: docks and warehouses, homes and
brothels, everything outside the city walls.
Even in the Red Keep, the air tasted of ashes. When Sansa found Ser Dontos in the quiet of the
godswood, he asked if she'd been crying. "It's only from the smoke," she lied. "It looks as though half the
kingswood is burning."
"Lord Stannis wants to smoke out the Imp's savages." Dontos swayed as he spoke, one hand on the
trunk of a chestnut tree. A wine stain discolored the red-and-yellow motley of his tunic. "They kill his
scouts and raid his baggage train. And the wildlings have been lighting fires too. The Imp told the queen
that Stannis had better train his horses to eat ash, since he would find no blade of grass. I heard him say
so. I hear all sorts of things as a fool that I never heard when I was a knight. They talk as though I am not
there, and--he leaned close, breathing his winey breath right in her face-"the Spider pays in gold for any
little trifle. I think Moon Boy has been his for years."


He is drunk again. My poor Florian he names himself, and so he is. But he is all I have. "Is it true Lord
Stannis burned the godswood at Storm's End?"
Dontos nodded. "He made a great pyre of the trees as an offering to his new god. The red priestess
made him do it. They say she rules him now, body and soul. He's vowed to burn the Great Sept of
Baelor too, if he takes the city."
"Let him." When Sansa had first beheld the Great Sept with its marble walls and seven crystal towers,
she'd thought it was the most beautiful building in the world, but that had been before Joffrey beheaded
her father on its steps. "I want it burned."
"Hush, child, the gods will hear you."
"Why should they? They never hear my prayers."
"Yes they do. They sent me to you, didn't they?"
Sansa picked at the bark of a tree. She felt light-headed, almost feverish. "They sent you, but what good
have you done? You promised you would take me home, but I'm still here."
Dontos patted her arm. "I've spoken to a certain man I know, a good friend to me . . . and you, my lady.
He will hire a swift ship to take us to safety, when the time is right."
"The time is right now," Sansa insisted, "before the fighting starts. They've forgotten about me. I know
we could slip away if we tried."
"Child, child." Dontos shook his head. "Out of the castle, yes, we could do that, but the city gates are
more heavily guarded than ever, and the Imp has even closed off the river."
It was true. The Blackwater Rush was as empty as Sansa had ever seen it. All the ferries had been
withdrawn to the north bank, and the trading galleys had fled or been seized by the Imp to be made over
for battle. The only ships to be seen were the king's war galleys. They rowed endlessly up and down,
staying to the deep water in the middle of the river and exchanging flights of arrows with Stannis's archers
on the south shore.
Lord Stannis himself was still on the march, but his vanguard had appeared two nights ago during the
black of the moon. King's Landing had woken to the sight of their tents and banners. They were five
thousand, Sansa had heard, near as many as all the gold cloaks in the city. They flew the red or green
apples of House Fossoway, the turtle of Estermont, and the fox-and-flowers of Florent, and their
commander was Ser Guyard Morrigen, a famous southron knight who men now called Guyard the
Green. His standard showed a crow in flight, its black wings spread wide against a storm-green sky. But
it was the pale yellow banners that worried the city. Long ragged tails streamed behind them like
flickering flames, and in place of a lord's sigil they bore the device of a god: the burning heart of the Lord
of Light.
"When Stannis comes, he'll have ten times as many men as Joffrey does, everyone says so."
Dontos squeezed her shoulder. "The size of his host does not matter,
sweetling, so long as they are on the wrong side of the river. Stannis cannot cross without ships."


"He has ships. More than Joffrey."
"It's a long sail from Storm's End, the fleet will need to come up Massey's Hook and through the Gullet
and across Blackwater Bay. Perhaps the good gods will send a storm to sweep them from the seas."
Dontos gave a hopeful smile. "It is not easy for you, I know. You must be patient, child. When my friend
returns to the city, we shall have our ship. Have faith in your Florian, and try not to be afraid."
Sansa dug her nails into her hand. She could feel the fear in her tummy, twisting and pinching, worse
every day. Nightmares of the day Princess Myrcella had sailed still troubled her sleep; dark suffocating
dreams that woke her in the black of night, struggling for breath. She could hear the people screaming at
her, screaming without words, like animals. They had hemmed her in and thrown filth at her and tried to
pull her off her horse, and would have done worse if the Hound had not cut his way to her side. They had
torn the High Septon to pieces and smashed in Ser Aron's head with a rock. Try not to be afraid! he
said.
The whole city was afraid. Sansa could see it from the castle walls. The smallfolk were hiding themselves
behind closed shutters and barred doors as if that would keep them safe. The last time King's Landing
had fallen, the Lannisters looted and raped as they pleased and put hundreds to the sword, even though
the city had opened its gates. This time the Imp meant to fight, and a city that fought could expect no
mercy at all.
Dontos was prattling on. "If I were still a knight, I should have to put on armor and man the walls with
the rest. I ought to kiss King Joffrey's feet and thank him sweetly."
"If you thanked him for making you a fool, he'd make you a knight again," Sansa said sharply.
Dontos chuckled. "My Jonquil's a clever girl, isn't she?"
"Joffrey and his mother say I'm stupid."
"Let them. You're safer that way, sweetling. Queen Cersei and the Imp and Lord Varys and their like,
they all watch each other keen as hawks, and pay this one and that one to spy out what the others are
doing, but no one ever troubles themselves about Lady Tanda's daughter, do they?" Dontos covered his
mouth to stifle a burp. "Gods preserve you, my little Jonquil." He was growing weepy. The wine did that
to him. "Give your Florian a little kiss now. A kiss for luck." He swayed toward her.
Sansa dodged the wet groping lips, kissed him lightly on an unshaven cheek, and bid him good night. It
took all her strength not to weep. She had been weeping too much of late. It was unseemly, she knew,
but she
could not seem to help herself; the tears would come, sometimes over a trifle, and nothing she did could
hold them back.
The drawbridge to Maegor's Holdfast was unguarded. The imp had moved most of the gold cloaks to
the city walls, and the white knights of the Kingsguard had duties more important than dogging her heels.
Sansa could go where she would so long as she did not try to leave the castle, but there was nowhere
she wanted to go.
She crossed over the dry moat with its cruel iron spikes and made her way up the narrow turnpike stair,
but when she reached the door of her bedchamber she could not bear to enter. The very walls of the


room made her feel trapped; even with the window opened wide it felt as though there were no air to
breathe.
Turning back to the stair, Sansa climbed. The smoke blotted out the stars and the thin crescent of moon,
so the roof was dark and thick with shadows. Yet from here she could see everything: the Red Keep's
tall towers and great cornerforts, the maze of city streets beyond, to south and west the river running
black, the bay to the east, the columns of smoke and cinders, and fires, fires everywhere. Soldiers
crawled over the city walls like ants with torches, and crowded the hoardings that had sprouted from the
ramparts. Down by the Mud Gate, outlined against the drifting smoke, she could make out the vague
shape of the three huge catapults, the biggest anyone had ever seen, overtopping the walls by a good
twenty feet. Yet none of it made her feel less fearful. A stab went through her, so sharp that Sansa
sobbed and clutched at her belly. She might have fallen, but a shadow moved suddenly, and strong
fingers grabbed her arm and steadied her.
She grabbed a merlon for support, her fingers scrabbling at the rough stone. "Let go of me," she cried.
"Let go."
"The little bird thinks she has wings, does she? Or do you mean to end up crippled like that brother of
yours?"
Sansa twisted in his grasp. "I wasn't going to fall. It was only . . . you startled me, that's all."
"You mean I scared you. And still do."
She took a deep breath to calm herself. "I thought I was alone, I She glanced away.
"The little bird still can't bear to look at me, can she?" The Hound released her. "You were glad enough
to see my face when the mob had you, though. Remember?"
Sansa remembered all too well. She remembered the way they had howled, the feel of the blood running
down her cheek from where the stone had struck her, and the garlic stink on the breath of the man who
had tried to pull her from her horse. She could still feel the cruel pinch of fingers on her wrist as she lost
her balance and began to fall.
She'd thought she was going to die then, but the fingers had twitched, all five at once, and the man had
shrieked loud as a horse. When his hand fell away, another hand, stronger, shoved her back into her
saddle. The man with the garlicky breath was on the ground, blood pumping out the stump of his arm, but
there were others all around, some with clubs in hand. The Hound leapt at them, his sword a blur of steel
that trailed a red mist as it swung. When they broke and ran before him he had laughed, his terrible
burned face for a moment transformed.
She made herself look at that face now, really look. It was only courteous, and a lady must never forget
her courtesies. The scars are not the worst part, nor even the way his mouth twitches. It's his eyes. She
had never seen eyes so full of anger. "I . . . I should have come to you after," she said haltingly. "To thank
you, for . . . for saving me . . . you were so brave."
"Brave?" His laugh was half a snarl. "A dog doesn't need courage to chase off rats. They had me thirty to
one, and not a man of them dared face me."
She hated the way he talked, always so harsh and angry. "Does it give you joy to scare people?"


"No, it gives me joy to kill people." His mouth twitched. "Wrinkle up your face all you like, but spare me
this false piety. You were a high lord's get. Don't tell me Lord Eddard Stark of Winterfell never killed a
man."
"That was his duty. He never liked it."
"Is that what he told you?" Clegane laughed again. "Your father lied. Killing is the sweetest thing there
is." He drew his longsword. "Here's your truth. Your precious father found that out on Baelor's steps.
Lord of Winterfell, Hand of the King, Warden of the North, the mighty Eddard Stark, of a line eight
thousand years old . . . but Ilyn Payne's blade went through his neck all the same, didn't it? Do you
remember the dance he did when his head came off his shoulders?"
Sansa hugged herself, suddenly cold. "Why are you always so hateful? I was thanking you . . ."
"Just as if I was one of those true knights you love so well, yes. What do you think a knight is for, girl?
You think it's all taking favors from ladies and looking fine in gold plate? Knights are for killing." He laid
the edge of his longsword against her neck, just under her ear. Sansa could feel the sharpness of the
steel. "I killed my first man at twelve. I've lost count of how many I've killed since then. High lords with
old names, fat rich men dressed in velvet, knights puffed up like bladders with their honors, yes, and
women and children too-they're all meat, and I'm the butcher. Let them have their lands and their gods
and their gold. Let them have their sers." Sandor Clegane spat at her feet to show what he
thought of that. "So long as I have this," he said, lifting the sword from her throat, "there's no man on
earth I need fear."
Except your brother, Sansa thought, but she had better sense than to say it aloud. He is a dog, just as he
says. A half-wild, mean-tempered dog that bites any hand that tries to pet him, and yet will savage any
man who tries to hurt his masters. "Not even the men across the river?"
Clegane's eyes turned toward the distant fires. "All this burning." He sheathed his sword. "Only cowards
fight with fire."
"Lord Stannis is no coward.-
"He's not the man his brother was either. Robert never let a little thing like a river stop him."
"What will you do when he crosses?"
"Fight. Kill. Die, maybe."
"Aren't you afraid? The gods might send you down to some terrible hell for all the evil you've done."
"What evil?" He laughed. "What gods?"
"The gods who made us all."
"All?" he mocked. "Tell me, little bird, what kind of god makes a monster like the Imp, or a halfwit like
Lady Tanda's daughter? If there are gods, they made sheep so wolves could eat mutton, and they made
the weak for the strong to play with."
"True knights protect the weak."


He snorted. "There are no true knights, no more than there are gods. If you can't protect yourself, die
and get out of the way of those who can. Sharp steel and strong arms rule this world, don't ever believe
any different."
Sansa backed away from him. "You're awful."
"I'm honest. It's the world that's awful. Now fly away, little bird, I'm sick of you peeping at me."
Wordless, she fled. She was afraid of Sandor Clegane . . . and yet, some part of her wished that Ser
Dontos had a little of the Hound's ferocity. There are gods, she told herself, and there are true knights
too. All the stories can't be lies.
That night Sansa dreamed of the riot again. The mob surged around her, shrieking, a maddened beast
with a thousand faces. Everywhere she turned she saw faces twisted into monstrous inhuman masks. She
wept and told them she had never done them hurt, yet they dragged her from her horse all the same.
"No," she cried, "no, please, don't, don't," but no one paid her any heed. She shouted for Ser Dontos, for
her brothers, for her dead father and her dead wolf, for gallant Ser Loras who had given her a red rose
once, but none of them came. She called for the heroes from the songs, for Florian and Ser Ryam
Redwyne and Prince Aemon the Dragonknight, but no one heard. Women swarmed over her like
weasels,
pinching her legs and kicking her in the belly, and someone hit her in the face and she felt her teeth
shatter. Then she saw the bright glimmer of steel. The knife plunged into her belly and tore and tore and
tore, until there was nothing left of her down there but shiny wet ribbons.
When she woke, the pale light of morning was slanting through her window, yet she felt as sick and achy
as if she had not slept at all. There was something sticky on her thighs. When she threw back the blanket
and saw the blood, all she could think was that her dream had somehow come true. She remembered the
knives inside her, twisting and ripping. She squirmed away in horror, kicking at the sheets and falling to
the floor, breathing raggedly, naked, bloodied, and afraid.
But as she crouched there, on her hands and knees, understanding came. "No, please," Sansa
whimpered, "please, no." She didn't want this happening to her, not now, not here, not now, not now, not
now, not now.
Madness took hold of her. Pulling herself up by the bedpost, she went to the basin and washed between
her legs, scrubbing away all the stickiness. By the time she was done, the water was pink with blood.
When her maidservants saw it they would know Then she remembered the bedclothes. She rushed back
to the bed and stared in horror at the dark red stain and the tale it told. All she could think was that she
had to get rid of it, or else they'd see. She couldn't let them see, or they'd marry her to Joffrey and make
her lay with him.
Snatching up her knife, Sana hacked at the sheet, cutting out the stain. If they ask me about the hole,
what will I say? Tears ran down her face. She pulled the torn sheet from the bed, and the stained blanket
as well. I'll have to burn them. She balled up the evidence, stuffed it in the fireplace, drenched it in oil
from her bedside lamp, and lit it afire. Then she realized that the blood had soaked through the sheet into
the featherbed, so she bundled that up as well, but it was big and cumbersome, hard to move. Sansa
could get only half of it into the fire. She was on her knees, struggling to shove the mattress into the
flames as thick grey smoke eddied around her and filled the room, when the door burst open and she
heard her maid gasp.


In the end it took three of them to pull her away. And it was all for nothing. The bedclothes were burnt,
but by the time they carried her off her thighs were bloody again. It was as if her own body had betrayed
her to Joffrey, unfurling a banner of Lannister crimson for all the world to see.
When the fire was out, they carried off the singed featherbed, fanned away the worst of the smoke, and
brought up a tub. Women came and went, muttering and looking at her strangely. They filled the tub with
scalding hot water, bathed her and washed her hair and gave her a cloth
to wear between her legs. By then Sansa was calm again, and ashamed for her folly. The smoke had
ruined most of her clothing. One of the women went away and came back with a green wool shift that
was almost her size. "It's not as pretty as your own things, but it will serve," she announced when she'd
pulled it down over Sansa's head. "Your shoes weren't burned, so at least you won't need to go barefoot
to the queen."
Cersei Lannister was breaking her fast when Sansa was ushered into her solar. "You may sit," the queen
said graciously. "Are you hungry?" She gestured at the table. There was porridge, honey, milk, boiled
eggs, and crisp fried fish.
The sight of the food made Sansa feel ill. Her tummy was tied in a knot. "No, thank you, Your Grace."
"I don't blame you. Between Tyrion and Lord Stannis, everything I cat tastes of ash. And now you're
setting fires as well. What did you hope to accomplish? "
Sansa lowered her head. "The blood frightened me."
"The blood is the seal of your womanhood. Lady Catelyn might have prepared you. You've had your
first flowering, no more."
Sansa had never felt less flowery. "My lady mother told me, but I . . . I thought it would be different."
"Different how?"
"I don't know. Less . . . less messy, and more magical."
Queen Cersei laughed. "Wait until you birth a child, Sansa. A woman's life is nine parts mess to one part
magic, you'll learn that soon enough . . . and the parts that look like magic often turn out to be messiest of
all." She took a sip of milk. "So now you are a woman. Do you have the least idea of what that means?"
"It means that I am now fit to be wedded and bedded," said Sansa, "and to bear children for the king."
The queen gave a wry smile. "A prospect that no longer entices you as it once did, I can see. I will not
fault you for that. Joffrey has always been difficult. Even his birth . . . I labored a day and a half to bring
him forth. You cannot imagine the pain, Sansa. I screamed so loudly that I fancied Robert might hear me
in the kingswood."
"His Grace was not with you?"
"Robert? Robert was hunting. That was his custom. Whenever my time was near, my royal husband
would flee to the trees with his huntsmen and hounds. When he returned he would present me with some
pelts or a stag's head, and I would present him with a baby.


"Not that I wanted him to stay, mind you. I had Grand Maester Pycelle and an army of midwives, and I
had my brother. When they told Jaime he was not allowed in the birthing room, he smiled and asked
which of them proposed to keep him out.
"Joffrey will show you no such devotion, I fear. You could thank your sister for that, if she weren't dead.
He's never been able to forget that day on the Trident when you saw her shame him, so he shames you in
turn. You're stronger than you seem, though- I expect you'll survive a bit of humiliation. I did. You may
never love the king, but you'll love his children."
"I love His Grace with all my heart," Sansa said.
The queen sighed. "You had best learn some new lies, and quickly. Lord Stannis will not like that one, I
promise you."
"The new High Septon said that the gods will never permit Lord Stannis to win, since Joffrey is the
rightful king."
A half smile flickered across the queen's face. "Robert's trueborn son and heir. Though Joff would cry
whenever Robert picked him up. His Grace did not like that. His bastards had always gurgled at him
happily, and sucked his finger when he put it in their little baseborn mouths. Robert wanted smiles and
cheers, always, so he went where he found them, to his friends and his whores. Robert wanted to be
loved. My brother Tyrion has the same disease. Do you want to be loved, Sansa?"
"Everyone wants to be loved."
"I see flowering hasn't made you any brighter," said Cersei. "Sansa, permit me to share a bit of womanly
wisdom with you on this very special day. Love is poison. A sweet poison, yes, but it will kill you all the
same."
chapter 53
JON
It was dark in the Skirling Pass. The great stone flanks of the mountains hid the sun for most of the day,
so they rode in shadow, the
breath of man and horse steaming in the cold air. Icy fingers of water trickled down from the snowpack
above into small frozen pools that cracked and broke beneath the hooves of their garrons. Sometimes
they would see a few weeds struggling from some crack in the rock or a splotch of pale lichen, but there
was no grass, and they were above the trees now.
The track was as steep as it was narrow, wending its way ever upward. Where the pass was so
constricted that rangers had to go single file, Squire Dalbridge would take the lead, scanning the heights
as he went, his longbow ever close to hand. It was said he had the keenest eyes in the Night's Watch.
Ghost padded restlessly by Jon's side. From time to time he would stop and turn, his ears pricked, as if


he heard something behind them. Jon did not think the shadowcats would attack living men, not unless
they were starving, but he loosened Longclaw in its scabbard even so.
A wind-carved arch of grey stone marked the highest point of the pass. Here the way broadened as it
began its long descent toward the valley of the Milkwater. Qhorin decreed that they would rest here until
the shadows began to grow again. "Shadows are friends to men in black," he said.
Jon saw the sense of that. It would be pleasant to ride in the light for a time, to let the bright mountain
sun soak through their cloaks and chase
the chill from their bones, but they dared not. Where there were three watchers there might be others,
waiting to sound the alarm.
Stonesnake curled up under his ragged fur cloak and was asleep almost at once. Jon shared his salt beef
with Ghost while Ebben and Squire Dalbridge fed the horses. Qhorin Halfhand sat with his back to a
rock, honing the edge of his longsword with long slow strokes. Jon watched the ranger for a few
moments, then summoned his courage and went to him. "My lord," he said, "you never asked me how it
went. With the girl."
"I am no lord, Jon Snow." Qhorin slid the stone smoothly along the steel with his two-fingered hand.
"She told me Mance would take me, if I ran with her."
"She told you true."
"She even claimed we were kin. She told me a story
". . . of Bael the Bard and the rose of Winterfell. So Stonesnake told me. It happens I know the song.
Mance would sing it of old, when he came back from a ranging. He had a passion for wildling music.
Aye, and for their women as well."
"You knew him?"
"We all knew him." His voice was sad.
They were friends as well as brothers, Jon realized, and now they are sworn foes. "Why did he desert?"
"For a wench, some say. For a crown, others would have it." Qhorin tested the edge of his sword with
the ball of his thumb. "He liked women, Mance did, and he was not a man whose knees bent easily,
that's true. But it was more than that. He loved the wild better than the Wall. It was in his blood. He was
wildling born, taken as a child when some raiders were put to the sword. When he left the Shadow
Tower he was only going home again."
"Was he a good ranger?"
"He was the best of us," said the Halfhand, "and the worst as well. Only fools like Thoren Smallwood
despise the wildlings. They are as brave as we are, Jon. As strong, as quick, as clever. But they have no
discipline. They name themselves the free folk, and each one thinks himself as good as a king and wiser
than a maester. Mance was the same. He never learned how to obey."
"No more than me," said Jon quietly.


Qhorin's shrewd grey eyes seemed to see right through him. "So you let her go?" He did not sound the
least surprised.
"You know?"
"Now. Tell me why you spared her."
It was hard to put into words. "My father never used a headsman. He
said he owed it to men he killed to look into their eyes and hear their last words. And when I looked into
Ygritte's eyes, I . . ." ion stared down at his hands helplessly. "I know she was an enemy, but there was
no evil in her."
"No more than in the other two."
"It was their lives or ours Jon said. "If they had seen us, if they had sounded that horn . . ."
"The wildlings would hunt us down and slay us, true enough."
"Stonesnake has the horn now, though, and we took Ygritte's knife and axe. She's behind us, afoot,
unarmed . . ."
"And not like to be a threat," Qhorin agreed. "If I had needed her dead, I would have left her with
Ebben, or done the thing myself."
"Then why did you command it of me?"
"I did not command it. I told you to do what needed to be done, and left you to decide what that would
be." Qhorin stood and slid his longsword back into its scabbard. "When I want a mountain scaled, I call
on Stonesnake. Should I need to put an arrow through the eye of some foe across a windy battlefield, I
summon Squire Dalbridge. Ebben can make any man give up his secrets. To lead men you must know
them, Jon Snow. I know more of you now than I did this morning."
"And if I had slain her?" asked Jon.
"She would be dead, and I would know you better than I had before. But enough talk. You ought be
sleeping. We have leagues to go, and dangers to face. You will need your strength."
Jon did not think sleep would come easily, but he knew the Halfhand was right. He found a place out of
the wind, beneath an overhang of rock, and took off his cloak to use it for a blanket. "Ghost," he called.
"Here. To me." He always slept better with the great white wolf beside him; there was comfort in the
smell of him, and welcome warmth in that shaggy pale fur. This time, though, Ghost did no more than
look at him. Then he turned away and padded around the garrons, and quick as that he was gone. He
wants to hunt, Jon thought. Perhaps there were goats in these mountains. The shadowcats must live on
something. "Just don't try and bring down a 'cat," he muttered. Even for a direwolf, that would be
dangerous. He tugged his cloak over him and stretched out beneath the rock.
When he closed his eyes, he dreamed of direwolves.
There were five of them when there should have been six, and they were scattered, each apart from the


others. He felt a deep ache of emptiness, a sense of incompleteness. The forest was vast and cold, and
they were so small, so lost. His brothers were out there somewhere, and his sister, but he had lost their
scent. He sat on his haunches and lifted his
head to the darkening sky, and his cry echoed through the forest, a long lonely mournful sound. As it
died away, he pricked up his ears, listening for an answer, but the only sound was the sigh of blowing
snow.
Ion?
The call came from behind him, softer than a whisper, but strong too. Can a shout be silent? He turned
his head, searching for his brother, for a glimpse of a lean grey shape moving beneath the trees, but there
was nothing, only . . .
A weirwood.
It seemed to sprout from solid rock, its pale roots twisting up from a myriad of fissures and hairline
cracks. The tree was slender compared to other weirwoods he had seen, no more than a sapling, yet it
was growing as he watched, its limbs thickening as they reached for the sky. Wary, he circled the smooth
white trunk until he came to the face. Red eyes looked at him. Fierce eyes they were, yet glad to see him.
The weirwood had his brother's face. Had his brother always had three eyes?
Not always, came the silent shout. Not before the crow
He sniffed at the bark, smelled wolf and tree and boy, but behind that there were other scents, the rich
brown smell of warm earth and the hard grey smell of stone and something else, something terrible.
Death, he knew. He was smelling death. He cringed back, his hair bristling, and bared his fangs.
Don't be afraid, I like it in the dark. No one can see you, but you can see them. But first you have to
open your eyes. See? Like this. And the tree reached down and touched him.
And suddenly he was back in the mountains, his paws sunk deep in a drift of snow as he stood upon the
edge of a great precipice. Before him the Skirling Pass opened up into airy emptiness, and a long
vee-shaped valley lay spread beneath him like a quilt, awash in all the colors of an autumn afternoon.
A vast blue-white wall plugged one end of the vale, squeezing between the mountains as if it had
shouldered them aside, and for a moment he thought he had dreamed himself back to Castle Black. Then
he realized he was looking at a river of ice several thousand feet high. Under that glittering cold cliff was a
great lake, its deep cobalt waters reflecting the snowcapped peaks that ringed it. There were men down
in the valley, he saw now; many men, thousands, a huge host. Some were tearing great holes in the
half-frozen ground, while others trained for war. He watched as a swarming mass of riders charged a
shield wall, astride horses no larger than ants. The sound of their mock battle was a rustling of steel
leaves, drifting faintly on the wind. Their encampment had no plan to it; he saw no ditches, no sharpened
stakes, no neat rows of horse lines. Everywhere crude earthen shelters and hide tents sprouted
haphazardly,
like a pox on the face of the earth. He spied untidy mounds of hay, smelled goats and sheep, horses and
pigs, dogs in great profusion. Tendrils of dark smoke rose from a thousand cookfires.
This is no army, no more than it is a town. This is a whole people come together.


Across the long lake, one of the mounds moved. He watched it more closely and saw that it was not dirt
at all, but alive, a shaggy lumbering beast with a snake for a nose and tusks larger than those of the
greatest boar that had ever lived. And the thing riding it was huge as well, and his shape was wrong, too
thick in the leg and hips to be a man.
Then a sudden gust of cold made his fur stand up, and the air thrilled to the sound of wings. As he lifted
his eyes to the ice-white mountain heights above, a shadow plummeted out of the sky. A shrill scream
split the air. He glimpsed blue-grey pinions spread wide, shutting out the sun . . .
"Ghost!" Jon shouted, sitting up. He could still feel the talons, the pain. "Ghost, to me!"
Ebben appeared, grabbed him, shook him. "Quiet! You mean to bring the wildlings down on us? What's
wrong with you, boy?"
"A dream," said Jon feebly. "I was Ghost, I was on the edge of the mountain looking down on a frozen
river, and something attacked me. A bird . . . an eagle, I think . . ."
Squire Dalbridge smiled. "It's always pretty women in my dreams. Would that I dreamed more often."
Qhorin came up beside him. "A frozen river, you say?"
"The Milkwater flows from a great lake at the foot of a glacier," Stonesnake put in.
"There was a tree with my brother's face. The wildlings . . . there were thousands, more than I ever
knew existed. And giants riding mammoths." From the way the light had shifted, Jon judged that he had
been asleep for four or five hours. His head ached, and the back of his neck where the talons had burned
through him. But that was in the dream.
"Tell me all that you remember, from first to last," said Qhorin Halfhand.
Jon was confused. "It was only a dream."
"A wolf dream," the Halfhand said. "Craster told the Lord Commander that the wildlings were gathering
at the source of the Milkwater. That may be why you dreamed it. Or it may be that you saw what waits
for us, a few hours farther on. Tell me."
it made him feel half a fool to talk of such things to Qhorin and the other rangers, but he did as he was
commanded. None of the black brothers laughed at him, however. By the time he was done, even Squire
Dalbridge was no longer smiling.
"Skinchanger?" said Ebben grimly, looking at the Halfhand. Does he mean the eagle~ Jon wondered. Or
me? Skinchangers and wargs belonged in Old Nan's stories, not in the world he had lived in all his life.
Yet here, in this strange bleak wilderness of rock and ice, it was not hard to believe.
"The cold winds are rising. Mormont feared as much. Benjen Stark felt it as well. Dead men walk and
the trees have eyes again. Why should we balk at wargs and giants?"
"Does this mean my dreams are true as well?" asked Squire Dalbridge. "Lord Snow can keep his
mammoths, I want my women."
"Man and boy I've served the Watch, and ranged as far as any," said Ebben. "I've seen the bones of


giants, and heard many a queer tale, but no more. I want to see them with my own eyes."
"Be careful they don't see you, Ebben," Stonesnake said.
Ghost did not reappear as they set out again. The shadows covered the floor of the pass by then, and
the sun was sinking fast toward the jagged twin peaks of the huge mountain the rangers named Forktop.
If the dream was true . . . Even the thought scared him. Could the eagle have hurt Ghost, or knocked him
off the precipice? And what about the weirwood with his brother's face, that smelled of death and
darkness?
The last ray of sun vanished behind the peaks of Forktop. Twilight filled the Skirling Pass. It seemed to
grow colder almost at once. They were no longer climbing. In fact, the ground had begun to descend,
though as yet not sharply. It was littered with cracks and broken boulders and tumbled heaps of rock. It
will be dark soon, and still no sight of Ghost. It was tearing Jon apart, yet he dare not shout for the
direwolf as he would have liked. Other things might be listening as well.
"Qhorin," Squire Dalbridge called softly. "There. Look."
The eagle was perched on a spine of rock far above them, outlined against the darkening sky. We've
seen other eagles, Jon thought. That need not be the one I dreamed of.
Even so, Ebben would have loosed a shaft at it, but the squire stopped him. "The bird's well out of
bowshot."
"I don't like it watching us."
The squire shrugged. "Nor me, but you won't stop it. Only waste a good arrow."
Qhorin sat in his saddle, studying the eagle for a long time. "We press on," he finally said. The rangers
resumed their descent.
Ghost, Jon wanted to shout, where are you?
He was about to follow Qhorin and the others when he glimpsed a flash of white between two boulders.
A patch of old snow, he thought, until he saw it stir. He was off his horse at once. As he went to his
knees,
Ghost lifted his head. His neck glistened wetly, but he made no sound when Jon peeled off a glove and
touched him. The talons had torn a bloody path through fur and flesh, but the bird had not been able to
snap his neck.
Qhorin Halfhand was standing over him. "How bad?"
As if in answer, Ghost struggled to his feet.
"The wolf is strong," the ranger said. "Ebben, water. Stonesnake, your skin of wine. Hold him still, Jon."
Together they washed the caked blood from the direwolf's fur. Ghost struggled and bared his teeth when
Qhorm poured the wine into the ragged red gashes the eagle had left him, but Jon wrapped his arms
around him and murmured soothing words, and soon enough the wolf quieted. By the time they'd ripped
a strip from Jon's cloak to wrap the wounds, full dark had settled. Only a dusting of stars set the black of


sky apart from the black of stone. "Do we press on?" Stonesnake wanted to know.
Qhorin went to his garron. "Back, not on."
"Back?" Jon was taken by surprise.
"Eagles have sharper eyes than men. We are seen. So now we run." The Halfhand wound a long black
scarf around his face and swung up into the saddle.
The other rangers exchanged a look, but no man thought to argue. One by one they mounted and turned
their mounts toward home. "Ghost, come," he called, and the direwolf followed, a pale shadow moving
through the night.
All night they rode, feeling their way up the twisting pass and through the stretches of broken ground.
The wind grew stronger. Sometimes it was so dark that they dismounted and went ahead on foot, each
man leading his garron. Once Ebben suggested that some torches might serve them well, but Qhorin said,
"No fire," and that was the end of that. They reached the stone bridge at the summit and began to
descend again. Off in the darkness a shadowcat screamed in fury, its voice bouncing off the rocks so it
seemed as though a dozen other 'cats were giving answer. Once Jon thought he saw a pair of glowing
eyes on a ledge overhead, as big as harvest moons.
In the black hour before dawn, they stopped to let the horses drink and fed them each a handful of oats
and a twist or two of hay. "We are not far from the place the wildlings died," said Qhorin. "From there,
one man could hold a hundred. The right man." He looked at Squire Dalbridge.
The squire bowed his head. "Leave me as many arrows as you can spare, brothers." He stroked his
longbow. "And see my garron has an apple when you're home. He's earned it, poor beastie."
He's staying to die, ion realized.
Qhorin clasped the squire's forearm with a gloved hand. "If the eagle flies down for a look at you . . ."
". . . he'll sprout some new feathers."
The last Jon saw of Squire Dalbridge was his back as he clambered up the narrow path to the heights.
When dawn broke, Jon looked up into a cloudless sky and saw a speck moving through the blue. Ebben
saw it too, and cursed, but Qhorin told him to be quiet. "Listen."
Jon held his breath, and heard it. Far away and behind them, the call of a hunting horn echoed against
the mountains.
"And now they come," said Qhorin.
Chapter 54
TYRION


Pod dressed him for his ordeal in a plush velvet tunic of Lannister crimson and brought him his chain of
office. Tyrion left it on the bedside table. His sister misliked being reminded that he was the King's Hand,
and he did not wish to inflame the relations between them any further.
Varys caught up with him as he was crossing the yard. "My lord," he said, a little out of breath. "You had
best read this at once." He held out a parchment in a soft white hand. "A report from the north."
"Good news or bad?" Tyrion asked.
"That is not for me to judge."
Tyrion unrolled the parchment. He had to squint to read the words in the torchlit yard. "Gods be good,"
he said softly. "Both of them?"
"I fear so, my lord. It is so sad. So grievous sad. And them so young and innocent."
Tyrion remembered how the wolves had howled when the Stark boy had fallen. Are they howling now, I
wonder? "Have you told anyone else?" he asked.
"Not as yet, though of course I must."
He rolled up the letter. "I'll tell my sister." He wanted to see how she took the news. He wanted that
very much.
The queen looked especially lovely that night. She wore a low-cut gown of deep green velvet that
brought out the color of her eyes. Her golden hair tumbled across her bare shoulders, and around her
waist was
a woven belt studded with emeralds. Tyrion waited until he had been seated and served a cup of wine
before thrusting the letter at her. He said not a word. Cersei blinked at him innocently and took the
parchment from his hand.
"I trust you're pleased," he said as she read. "You wanted the Stark boy dead, I believe."
Cersei made a sour face. "It was Jaime who threw him from that window, not me. For love, he said, as if
that would please me. It was a stupid thing to do, and dangerous besides, but when did our sweet
brother ever stop to think?"
"The boy saw you," Tyrion pointed out.
"He was a child. I could have frightened him into silence." She looked at the letter thoughtfully. "Why
must I suffer accusations every time some Stark stubs his toe? This was Greyjoy's work, I had nothing to
do with it."
"Let us hope Lady Catelyn believes that."
Her eyes widened. "She wouldn't-"
"-kill Jaime? Why not? What would you do if Joffrey and Tommen were murdered?"


"I still hold Sansa!" the queen declared.
"We still hold Sansa," he corrected her, "and we had best take good care of her. Now where is this
supper you've promised me, sweet sister?"
Cersei set a tasty table, that could not be denied. They started with a creamy chestnut soup, crusty hot
bread, and greens dressed with apples and pine nuts. Then came lamprey pie, honeyed ham, buttered
carrots, white beans and bacon, and roast swan stuffed with mushrooms and oysters. Tyrion was
exceedingly courteous; he offered his sister the choice portions of every dish, and made certain he ate
only what she did. Not that he truly thought she'd poison him, but it never hurt to be careful.
The news about the Starks had soured her, he could see. "We've had no word from Bitterbridge?" she
asked anxiously as she speared a bit of apple on the point of her dagger and ate it with small, delicate
bites.
"None."
"I've never trusted Littlefinger. For enough coin, he'd go over to Stannis in a heartbeat."
"Stannis Baratheon is too bloody righteous to buy men. Nor would he make a comfortable lord for the
likes of Petyr. This war has made for some queer bedfellows, I agree, but those two? No."
As he carved some slices off the ham, she said, "We have Lady Tanda to thank for the pig."
"A token of her love?"
"A bribe. She begs leave to return to her castle. Your leave as well as
mine. I suspect she fears you'll arrest her on the road, as you did Lord Gyles."
"Does she plan to make off with the heir to the throne?" Tyrion served his sister a cut of ham and took
one for himself. "I'd sooner she remain. If she wants to feel safe, tell her to bring down her garrison from
Stokeworth. As many men as she has."
"If we need men so badly, why did you send away your savages?" A certain testiness crept into Cersei's
voice.
"It was the best use I could have made of them," he told her truthfully. "They're fierce warriors, but not
soldiers. in formal battle, discipline is more important than courage. They've already done us more good
in the kingswood than they would ever have done us on the city walls."
As the swan was being served, the queen questioned him about the conspiracy of the Antler Men. She
seemed more annoyed than afraid. "Why are we plagued with so many treasons? What injury has House
Lannister ever done these wretches?"
"None," said Tyrion, "but they think to be on the winning side . . . which makes them fools as well as
traitors."
"Are you certain you've found them all?"
"Varys says so." The swan was too rich for his taste.


A line appeared on Cersei's pale white brow, between those lovely eyes. "You put too much trust in that
eunuch."
"He serves me well."
"Or so he'd have you believe. You think you're the only one he whispers secrets to? He gives each of us
just enough to convince us that we'd be helpless without him. He played the same game with me, when I
first wed Robert. For years, I was convinced I had no truer friend at court, but now . . ." She studied his
face for a moment. "He says you mean to take the Hound from Joffrey."
Damn Varys. "I need Clegane for more important duties."
"Nothing is more important than the life of the king."
"The life of the king is not at risk. Joff will have brave Ser Osmund guarding him, and Meryn Trant as
well." They're good for nothing better. "I need Balon Swann and the Hound to lead sorties, to make
certain Stannis gets no toehold on our side of the Blackwater."
"Jaime would lead the sorties himself."
"From Riverrun? That's quite a sortie."
"Joff's only a boy."
"A boy who wants to be part of this battle, and for once he's showing some sense. I don't intend to put
him in the thick of the fighting, but he needs to be seen. Men fight more fiercely for a king who shares
their peril than one who hides behind his mother's skirts."
"He's thirteen, Tyrion."
"Remember Jaime at thirteen? If you want the boy to be his father's son, let him play the part. Joff wears
the finest armor gold can buy, and he'll have a dozen gold cloaks around him at all times. If the city looks
to be in the least danger of falling, I'll have him escorted back to the Red Keep at once."
He had thought that might reassure her, but he saw no sign of pleasure in those green eyes. "Will the city
fall?"
"No." But if it does, pray that we can hold the Red Keep long enough for our lord father to march to our
relief.
"You've lied to me before, Tyrion."
"Always with good reason, sweet sister. I want amity between us as much as you do. I've decided to
release Lord Gyles." He had kept Gyles safe for just this gesture. "You can have Ser Boros Blount back
as well."
The queen's mouth tightened. "Ser Boros can rot at Rosby," she said, "but Tommen-"
-stays where he is. He's safer under Lord Jacelyn's protection than he would ever have been with Lord
Gyles."


Serving men cleared away the swan, hardly touched. Cersei beckoned for the sweet. "I hope you like
blackberry tarts."
"I love all sorts of tarts."
"Oh, I've known that a long while. Do you know why Varys is so dangerous? "
"Are we playing at riddles now? No."
"He doesn't have a cock."
"Neither do you." And don't you just hate that, Cersei?
"Perhaps I'm dangerous too. You, on the other hand, are as big a fool as every other man. That worm
between your legs does half your thinking."
Tyrion licked the crumbs off his fingers. He did not like his sister's smile. "Yes, and just now my worm is
thinking that perhaps it is time I took my leave."
"Are you unwell, brother?" She leaned forward, giving him a good look at the top of her breasts.
"Suddenly you appear somewhat flustered."
"Flustered?" Tyrion glanced at the door. He thought he'd heard something outside. He was beginning to
regret coming here alone. "You've never shown much interest in my cock before."
"It's not your cock that interests me, so much as what you stick it in. I don't depend on the eunuch for
everything, as you do. I have my own ways of finding out things . . . especially things that people don't
want me to know."
"What are you trying to say?"
"Only this-I have your little whore."
Tyrion reached for his wine cup, buying a moment to gather his thoughts. "I thought men were more to
your taste."
"You're such a droll little fellow. Tell me, have you married this one yet?" When he gave her no answer
she laughed and said, "Father will be ever so relieved."
His belly felt as if it were full of eels. How had she found Shae? Had Varys betrayed him? Or had all his
precautions been undone by his impatience the night he rode directly to the manse? "Why should you
care who I choose to warm my bed?"
"A Lannister always pays his debts," she said. "You've been scheming against me since the day you
came to King's Landing. You sold Myrcella, stole Tommen, and now you plot to have Joff killed. You
want him dead so you can rule through Tommen."
Well, I can't say the notion isn't tempting. "This is madness, Cersei. Stannis will be here in days. You
need me."


"For what? Your great prowess in battle?"
"Bronn's sellswords will never fight without me," he lied.
"Oh, I think they will. It's your gold they love, not your impish wit. Have no fear, though, they won't be
without you. I won't say I haven't thought of slitting your throat from time to time, but Jaime would never
forgive me if I did."
"And the whore?" He would not call her by name. If I can convince her Shae means nothing to me,
perhaps . . .
"She'll be treated gently enough, so long as no harm comes to my sons. If Joff should be killed, however,
or if Tommen should fall into the hands of our enemies, your little cunt will die more painfully than you can
possibly imagine."
She truly believes I mean to kill my own nephew "The boys are safe," he promised her wearily. "Gods
be good, Cersei, they're my own blood! What sort of man do you take me for?"
"A small and twisted one."
Tyrion stared at the dregs on the bottom of his wine cup. What would Jaime do in my place? Kill the
bitch, most likely, and worry about the consequences afterward. But Tyrion did not have a golden
sword, nor the skill to wield one. He loved his brother's reckless wrath, but it was their lord father he
must try and emulate. Stone, I must be stone, I must be Casterly Rock, hard and unmovable. If I fail this
test, I had as lief seek out the nearest grotesquerie. "For all I know, you've killed her already," he said.
"Would you like to see her? I thought you might." Cersei crossed the room and threw open the heavy
oaken door. "Bring in my brother's whore."
Ser Osmund's brothers Osney and Osfryd were peas from the same
pod, tall men with hooked noses, dark hair, and cruel smiles. She hung between them, eyes wide and
white in her dark face. Blood trickled from her broken lip, and he could see bruises through her torn
clothing. Her hands were bound with rope, and they'd gagged her so she could not speak.
"You said she wouldn't be hurt."
"She fought." Unlike his brothers, Osney Kettleblack was cleanshaven, so the scratches showed plainly
on his bare cheeks. "Got claws like a shadowcat, this one."
"Bruises heal," said Cersei in a bored tone. "The whore will live. So long as Joff does."
Tyrion wanted to laugh at her. It would have been so sweet, so very very sweet, but it would have given
the game away. You've lost, Cersei, and the Kettleblacks are even bigger fools than Bronn claimed. All
he needed to do was say the words.
instead he looked at the girl's face and said, "You swear you'll release her after the battle?"
"If you release Tommen, yes."
He pushed himself to his feet. "Keep her then, but keep her safe. If these animals think they can use her .


. . well, sweet sister, let me point out that a scale tips two ways." His tone was calm, flat, uncaring; he'd
reached for his father's voice, and found it. "Whatever happens to her happens to Tornmen as well, and
that includes the beatings and rapes." If she thinks me such a monster, I'll play the part for her.
Cersei had not expected that. "You would not dare."
Tyrion made himself smile, slow and cold. Green and black, his eyes laughed at her. "Dare? I'll do it
myself."
His sister's hand flashed at his face, but he caught her wrist and bent it back until she cried out. Osfryd
moved to her rescue. "One more step and I'll break her arm," the dwarf warned him. The man stopped.
"You remember when I said you'd never hit me again, Cersei?" He shoved her to the floor and turned
back to the Kettleblacks. "Untie her and remove that gag."
The rope had been so tight as to cut off the blood to her hands. She cried out in pain as the circulation
returned. Tyrion massaged her fingers gently until feeling returned. "Sweetling," he said, "you must be
brave. I am sorry they hurt you."
"I know you'll free me, my lord."
"I will," he promised, and Alayaya bent over and kissed him on the brow. Her broken lips left a smear of
blood on his forehead. A bloody kiss is more than I deserve, Tyrion thought. She would never have been
hurt but for me.
Her blood still marked him as he looked down at the queen. "I have
never liked you, Cersei, but you were my own sister, so I never did you harm. You've ended that. I will
hurt you for this. I don't know how yet, but give me time. A day will come when you think yourself safe
and happy, and suddenly your joy will turn to ashes in your mouth, and you'll know the debt is paid."
in war, his father had told him once, the battle is over in the instant one army breaks and flees. No matter
that they're as numerous as they were a moment before, still armed and armored; once they had run
before you they would not turn to fight again. So it was with Cersei. "Get out!" was all the answer she
could summon. "Get out of my sight!"
Tyrion bowed. "Good night, then. And pleasant dreams."
He made his way back to the Tower of the Hand with a thousand armored feet marching through his
skull. I ought to have seen this coming the first time I slipped through the back of Chataya's wardrobe.
Perhaps he had not wanted to see. His legs were aching badly by the time he had made the climb. He
sent Pod for a flagon of wine and pushed his way into his bedchamber.
Shae sat cross-legged in the canopied bed, nude but for the heavy golden chain that looped across the
swell of her breasts: a chain of linked golden hands, each clasping the next.
Tyrion had not expected her. "What are you doing here?"
Laughing, she stroked the chain. "I wanted some hands on my titties . . . but these little gold ones are
cold."
For a moment he did know what to say. How could he tell her that another woman had taken the


beating meant for her, and might well die in her place should some mischance of battle fell Joffrey? He
wiped Alayaya's blood from his brow with the heel of his hand. "The Lady Lollys-"
"She's asleep. Sleep's all she ever wants to do, the great cow. She sleeps and she eats. Sometimes she
falls asleep while she's eating. The food falls under the blankets and she rolls in it, and I have to clean
her." She made a disgusted face. "All they did was fuck her."
"Her mother says she's sick."
"She has a baby in her belly, that's all."
Tyrion gazed around the room. Everything seemed much as he left it. "How did you enter? Show me the
hidden door."
She gave a shrug. "Lord Varys made me wear a hood. I couldn't see, except . . . there was one place, I
got a peep at the floor out the bottom of the hood. It was all tiles, you know, the kind that make a
picture?"
"A mosaic?"
Shae nodded. "They were colored red and black. I think the picture was a dragon. Otherwise,
everything was dark. We went down a ladder and walked a long ways, until I was all twisted around.
Once we stopped
so he could unlock an iron gate. I brushed against it when we went through. The dragon was past the
gate. Then we went up another ladder, with a tunnel at the top. I had to stoop, and I think Lord Varys
was crawling."
Tyrion made a round of the bedchamber. One of the sconces looked loose. He stood on his toes and
tried to turn it. It revolved slowly, scraping against the stone wall. When it was upside down, the stub of
the candle fell out. The rushes scattered across the cold stone floor did not show any particular
disturbance. "Doesn't m'lord want to bed me?" asked Shae.
"In a moment." Tyrion threw open his wardrobe, shoved the clothing aside, and pushed against the rear
panel. What worked for a whorehouse might work for a castle as well . . . but no, the wood was solid,
unyielding. A stone beside the window seat drew his eye, but all his tugging and prodding went for
naught. He returned to the bed frustrated and annoyed.
Shae undid his laces and threw her arms around his neck. "Your shoulders feel as hard as rocks," she
murmured. "Hurry, I want to feel you inside me." Yet as her legs locked around his waist, his manhood
left him. When she felt him go soft, Shae slid down under the sheets and took him in her mouth, but even
that could not rouse him.
After a few moments he stopped her. "What's wrong?" she asked. All the sweet innocence of the world
was written there in the lines of her young face.
Innocence? Fool, she's a whore, Cersei was right, you think with your cock, fool, fool.
"Just go to sleep, sweetling," he urged, stroking her hair. Yet long after Shae had taken his advice,
Tyrion himself still lay awake, his fingers cupped over one small breast as he listened to her breathing.


Chapter 55
CATIELYN
The Great Hall of Riverrun was a lonely place for two to sit to supper. Deep shadows draped the walls.
one of the torches had guttered out, leaving only three. Catelyn sat staring into her wine goblet. The
vintage tasted thin and sour on her tongue. Brienne was across from her. Between them, her father's high
seat was as empty as the rest of the hall. Even the servants were gone. She had given them leave to join
the celebration.
The walls of the keep were thick, yet even so, they could hear the muffled sounds of revelry from the
yard outside. Ser Desmond had brought twenty casks up from the cellars, and the smallfolk were
celebrating Edmure's imminent return and Robb's conquest of the Crag by hoisting horns of nut-brown
ale.
I cannot blame them, Catelyn thought. They do not know And if they did, why should they care? They
never knew my sons. Never watched Bran climb with their hearts in their throats, pride and terror so
mingled they seemed as one, never heard him laugh, never smiled to see Rickon trying so fiercely to be
like his older brothers. She stared at the supper set before her: trout wrapped in bacon, salad of turnip
greens and red fennel and sweetgrass, pease and onions and hot bread. Brienne was eating methodically,
as if supper were another chore to be accomplished. I am become a sour woman, Catelyn thought. I
take no joy in mead nor meat, and song and laughter have become suspicious
strangers to me. I am a creature of grief and dust and bitter longings. There is an empty place within me
where my heart was once.
The sound of the other woman's eating had become intolerable to her. "Brienne, I am no fit company.
Go join the revels, if you would. Drink a horn of ale and dance to Rymund's harping."
"I am not made for revels, my lady." Her big hands tore apart a heel of black bread. Brienne stared at
the chunks as if she had forgotten what they were. "If you command it, I . . ."
Catelyn could sense her discomfort. "I only thought you might enjoy happier company than mine."
"I'm well content." The girl used the bread to sop up some of the bacon grease the trout had been fried
in.
"There was another bird this morning." Catelyn did not know why she said it. "The maester woke me at
once. That was dutiful, but not kind. Not kind at all." She had not meant to tell Brienne. No one knew
but her and Maester Vyman, and she had meant to keep it that way until . . . until . . .
Until what? Foolish woman, will holding it secret in your heart make it any less true? If you never tell,
never speak of it, will it become only a dream, less than a dream, a nightmare half-remembered? Oh, if
only the gods would be so good.
"Is it news of King's Landing?" asked Brienne.


"Would that it was. The bird came from Castle Cerwyn, from Ser Rodrik, my castellan." Dark wings,
dark words. "He has gathered what power he could and is marching on Winterfell, to take the castle
back." How unimportant all that sounded now. "But he said . . . he wrote . . . he told me, he . . ."
"My lady, what is it? Is it some news of your sons?"
Such a simple question that was; would that the answer could be as simple. When Catelyn tried to
speak, the words caught in her throat. "I have no sons but Robb." She managed those terrible words
without a sob, and for that much she was glad.
Brienne looked at her with horror. "My lady?"
"Bran and Rickon tried to escape, but were taken at a mill on the Acorn Water. Theon Greyjoy has
mounted their heads on the walls of Winterfell. Theon Greyjoy, who ate at my table since he was a boy
of ten." I have said it, gods forgive me. I have said it and made it true.
Brienne's face was a watery blur. She reached across the table, but her fingers stopped short of
Catelyn's, as if the touch might be unwelcome. "I . . . there are no words, my lady. My good lady. Your
sons, they . . . they're with the gods now."
"Are they?" Catelyn said sharply. "What god would let this happen? Rickon was only a baby. How
could he deserve such a death? And
Bran . . . when I left the north, he had not opened his eyes since his fall. I had to go before he woke.
Now I can never return to him, or hear him laugh again." She showed Brienne her palms, her fingers.
"These scars . . . they sent a man to cut Bran's throat as he lay sleeping. He would have died then, and
me with him, but Bran's wolf tore out the man's throat." That gave her a moment's pause. "I suppose
Theon killed the wolves too. He must have, elsewise . . . I was certain the boys would be safe so long as
the direwolves were with them. Like Robb with his Grey Wind. But my daughters have no wolves now."
The abrupt shift of topic left Brienne bewildered. "Your daughters . . ."
"Sansa was a lady at three, always so courteous and eager to please. She loved nothing so well as tales
of knightly valor. Men would say she had my look, but she will grow into a woman far more beautiful
than I ever was, you can see that. I often sent away her maid so I could brush her hair myself. She had
auburn hair, lighter than mine, and so thick and soft . . . the red in it would catch the light of the torches
and shine like copper.
"And Arya, well . . . Ned's visitors would oft mistake her for a stableboy if they rode into the yard
unannounced. Arya was a trial, it must be said. Half a boy and half a wolf pup. Forbid her anything and it
became her heart's desire. She had Ned's long face, and brown hair that always looked as though a bird
had been nesting in it. I despaired of ever making a lady of her. She collected scabs as other girls collect
dolls, and would say anything that came into her head. I think she must be dead too." When she said that,
it felt as though a giant hand were squeezing her chest. "I want them all dead, Brienne. Theon Greyjoy
first, then Jaime Lannister and Cersei and the Imp, every one, every one. But my girls . . . my girls will . .
."
"The queen . . . she has a little girl of her own," Brienne said awkwardly. "And sons too, of an age with
yours. When she hears, perhaps she . . . she may take pity, and . . ."
"Send my daughters back unharmed?" Catelyn smiled sadly. "There is a sweet innocence about you,


child. I could wish . . . but no. Robb will avenge his brothers. Ice can kill as dead as fire. Ice was Ned's
greatsword. Valyrian steel, marked with the ripples of a thousand foldings, so sharp I feared to touch it.
Robb's blade is dull as a cudgel compared to Ice. It will not be easy for him to get Theon's head off, I
fear. The Starks do not use headsmen. Ned always said that the man who passes the sentence should
swing the blade, though he never took any joy in the duty. But I would, oh, yes." She stared at her
scarred hands, opened and closed them, then slowly raised her eyes. "I've sent him wine."
"Wine?" Brienne was lost. "Robb? Or . . . Theon Greyjoy?"
"The Kingslayer." The ploy had served her well with Cleos Frey. I hope you're thirsty, Jaime. I hope
your throat is dry and tight. "I would like you to come with me."
"I am yours to command, my lady."
"Good." Catelyn rose abruptly. "Stay, finish your meal in peace. I will send for you later. At midnight."
"So late, my lady?"
"The dungeons are windowless. One hour is much like another down there, and for me, all hours are
midnight." Her footsteps rang hollowly when Catelyn left the hall. As she climbed to Lord Hoster's solar,
she could hear them outside, shouting, "Tully!" and "A cup! A cup to the brave young lord!" My father is
not dead, she wanted to shout down at them. My sons are dead, but my father lives, damn you all, and
he is your lord still.
Lord Hoster was deep in sleep. "He had a cup of drearnwine not so long ago, my lady," Maester
Vyman said. "For the pain. He will not know you are here."
"It makes no matter," Catelyn said. He is more dead than alive, yet more alive than my poor sweet sons.
"My lady, is there aught I might do for you? A sleeping draught, perhaps?"
"Thank you, Maester, but no. I will not sleep away my grief. Bran and Rickon deserve better from me.
Go and join the celebration, I will sit with my father for a time."
"As you will, my lady." Vyman bowed and left her.
Lord Hoster lay on his back, mouth open, his breath a faint whistling sigh. One hand hung over the edge
of the mattress, a pale frail fleshless thing, but warm when she touched it. She slid her fingers through his
and closed them. No matter how tightly I hold him, I cannot keep him here, she thought sadly. Let him
go. Yet her fingers would not seem to unbend.
"I have no one to talk with, Father," she told him. "I pray, but the gods do not answer." Lightly she
kissed his hand. The skin was warm, blue veins branching like rivers beneath his pale translucent skin.
Outside the greater rivers flowed, the Red Fork and the Tumblestone, and they would flow forever, but
not so the rivers in her father's hand. Too soon that current would grow still. "Last night I dreamed of that
time Lysa and I got lost while riding back from Seagard. Do you remember? That strange fog came up
and we fell behind the rest of the party. Everything was grey, and I could not see a foot past the nose of
my horse. We lost the road. The branches of the trees were like long skinny arms reaching out to grab us
as we passed. Lysa started to cry, and when I shouted
the fog seemed to swallow the sound. But Petyr knew where we were, and he rode back and found us .


. .
"But there's no one to find me now, is there? This time I have to find our own way, and it is hard, so
hard.
"I keep remembering the Stark words. Winter has come, Father. For me. For me. Robb must fight the
Greyjoys now as well as the Lannisters, and for what? For a gold hat and an iron chair? Surely the land
has bled enough. I want my girls back, I want Robb to lay down his sword and pick some homely
daughter of Walder Frey to make him happy and give him sons. I want Bran and Rickon back, I want . .
." Catelyn hung her head. "I want," she said once more, and then her words were gone.
After a time the candle guttered and went out. Moonlight slanted between the slats of the shutters, laying
pale silvery bars across her father's face. She could hear the soft whisper of his labored breathing, the
endless rush of waters, the faint chords of some love song drifting up from the yard, so sad and sweet. "I
loved a maid as red as autumn," Rymund sang, "with sunset in her hair."
Catelyn never noticed when the singing ended. Hours had passed, yet it seemed only a heartbeat before
Brienne was at the door. "MY lady," she announced softly. "Midnight has come."
Midnight has come, Father, she thought, and I must do my duty. She let go of his hand.
The gaoler was a furtive little man with broken veins in his nose. They found him bent over a tankard of
ale and the remains of a pigeon pie, more than a little drunk. He squinted at them suspiciously. "Begging
your forgiveness, m'lady, but Lord Edmure says no one is to see the Kingslayer without a writing from
him, with his seal upon it."
"Lord Edmure? Has my father died, and no one told me?"
The gaoler licked his lips. "No, m'lady, not as I knows."
"You will open the cell, or you will come with me to Lord Hoster's solar and tell him why you saw fit to
defy me."
His eyes fell. "As m'lady says." The keys were chained to the studded leather belt that girdled his waist.
He muttered under his breath as he sorted through them, until he found the one that fit the door to the
Kingslayer's cell.
"Go back to your ale and leave us," she commanded. An oil lamp hung from a hook on the low ceiling.
Catelyn took it down and turned up the flame. "Brienne, see that I am not disturbed."
Nodding, Brienne took up a position just outside the cell, her hand resting on the pommel of her sword.
"My lady will call if she has need of me."
Catelyn shouldered aside the heavy wood-and-iron door and stepped
into foul darkness. This was the bowels of Riverrun, and smelled the part. Old straw crackled underfoot.
The walls were discolored with patches of nitre. Through the stone, she could hear the faint rush of the
Tumblestone. The lamplight revealed a pail overflowing with feces in one corner and a huddled shape in
another. The flagon of wine stood beside the door, untouched. So much for that ploy. I ought to be
thankful that the gaoler did not drink it himself, I suppose.


Jaime raised his hands to cover his face, the chains around his wrists clanking. "Lady Stark," he said, in a
voice hoarse with disuse. "I fear I am in no condition to receive you."
"Look at me, ser."
"The light hurts my eyes. A moment, if you would." Jaime Lannister had been allowed no razor since the
night he was taken in the Whispering Wood, and a shaggy beard covered his face, once so like the
queen's. Glinting gold in the lamplight, the whiskers made him look like some great yellow beast,
magnificent even in chains. His unwashed hair fell to his shoulders in ropes and tangles, the clothes were
rotting on his body, his face was pale and wasted . . . and even so, the power and the beauty of the man
were still apparent.
"I see you had no taste for the wine I sent you."
"Such sudden generosity seemed somewhat suspect."
"I can have your head off anytime I want. Why would I need to poison you?"
"Death by poison can seem natural. Harder to claim that my head simply fell off." He squinted up from
the floor, his cat-green eyes slowly becoming accustomed to the light. "Id invite you to sit, but your
brother has neglected to provide me a chair."
"I can stand well enough."
"Can you? You look terrible, I must say. Though perhaps it's just the light in here." He was fettered at
wrist and ankle, each cuff chained to the others, so he could neither stand nor lie comfortably. The ankle
chains were bolted to the wall. "Are my bracelets heavy enough for you, or did you come to add a few
more? I'll rattle them prettily if you like."
"You brought this on yourself," she reminded him. "We granted you the comfort of a tower cell befitting
your birth and station. You repaid us by trying to escape."
"A cell is a cell. Some under Casterly Rock make this one seem a sunlit garden. One day perhaps I'll
show them to you."
If he is cowed, he hides it well, Catelyn thought. "A man chained hand and foot should keep a more
courteous tongue in his mouth, ser. I did not come here to be threatened."
"No? Then surely it was to have your pleasure of me? It's said that widows grow weary of their empty
beds. We of the Kingsguard vow never
to wed, but I suppose I could still service you if that's what you need. Pour us some of that wine and slip
out of that gown and we'll see if I'm up to it."
Catelyn stared down at him in revulsion. Was there ever a man as beautiful or as vile as this one? "If you
said that in my son's hearing, he would kill you for it."
"Only so long as I was wearing these." Jaime Lannister rattled his chains at her. "We both know the boy
is afraid to face me in single combat."
"My son may be young, but if you take him for a fool, you are sadly mistaken . . . and it seems to me


that you were not so quick to make challenges when you had an army at your back."
"Did the old Kings of Winter hide behind their mothers' skirts as well? "
"I grow weary of this, ser. There are things I must know."
"Why should I tell you anything?"
"To save your life."
"You think I fear death?" That seemed to amuse him.
"You should. Your crimes will have earned you a place of torment in the deepest of the seven hells, if the
gods are just."
"What gods are those, Lady Catelyn? The trees your husband prayed to? How well did they serve him
when my sister took his head off?" Jaime gave a chuckle. "If there are gods, why is the world so full of
pain and injustice?"
"Because of men like you."
"There are no men like me. There's only me."
There is nothing here but arrogance and pride, and the empty courage of a madman. I am wasting my
breath with this one. If there was ever a spark of honor in him, it is long dead. "If you will not speak with
me, so be it. Drink the wine or piss in it, ser, it makes no matter to me."
Her hand was at the door pull when he said, "Lady Stark." She turned, waited. "Things go to rust in this
damp," Jaime went on. "Even a man's courtesies. Stay, and you shall have your answers . . . for a price."
He has no shame. "Captives do not set prices."
"Oh, you'll find mine modest enough. Your turnkey tells me nothing but vile lies, and he cannot even
keep them straight. one day he says Cersei has been flayed, and the next it's my father. Answer my
questions and I'll answer yours."
"Truthfully? "
"Oh, it's truth you want? Be careful, my lady. Tyrion says that people often claim to hunger for truth, but
seldom like the taste when it's served up."
"I am strong enough to hear anything you care to say."
"As you will, then. But first, if you'd be so kind . . . the wine. My throat is raw."
Catelyn hung the lamp from the door and moved the cup and flagon closer. Jaime sloshed the wine
around his mouth before he swallowed. "Sour and vile," he said, "but it will do." He put his back to the
wall, drew his knees up to his chest, and stared at her. "Your first question, Lady Catelyn?"
Not knowing how long this game might continue, Catelyn wasted no time. "Are you Joffrey's father?"


"You would never ask unless you knew the answer."
"I want it from your own lips."
He shrugged. "Joffrey is mine. As are the rest of Cersei's brood, I suppose."
"You admit to being your sister's lover?"
"I've always loved my sister, and you owe me two answers. Do all my kin still live?"
"Ser Stafford Lannister was slain at Oxcross, I am told."
Jaime was unmoved. "Uncle Dolt, my sister called him. it's Cersei and Tyrion who concern me. As well
as my lord father."
"They live, all three." But not long, if the gods are good.
Jaime drank some more wine. "Ask your next."
Catelyn wondered if he would dare answer her next question with anything but a lie. "How did my son
Bran come to fall?"
"I flung him from a window."
The easy way he said it took her voice away for an instant. If I had a knife, I would kill him now, she
thought, until she remembered the girls. Her throat constricted as she said, "You were a knight, sworn to
defend the weak and innocent."
"He was weak enough, but perhaps not so innocent. He was spying on us.
"Bran would not spy."
"Then blame those precious gods of yours, who brought the boy to our window and gave him a glimpse
of something he was never meant to see."
"Blame the gods?" she said, incredulous. "Yours was the hand that threw him. You meant for him to die."
His chains chinked softly. "I seldom fling children from towers to improve their health. Yes, I meant for
him to die."
"And when he did not, you knew your danger was worse than ever, so you gave your catspaw a bag of
silver to make certain Bran would never wake."
"Did I now?" Jaime lifted his cup and took a long swallow. "I won't deny we talked of it, but you were
with the boy day and night, your
maester and Lord Eddard attended him frequently, and there were guards, even those damned
direwolves . . . it would have required cutting my way through half of Winterfell. And why bother, when
the boy seemed like to die of his own accord?"
"If you lie to me, this session is at an end." Catelyn held out her hands, to show him her fingers and


palms. "The man who came to slit Bran's throat gave me these scars. You swear you had no part in
sending him? "
"On my honor as a Lannister."
"Your honor as a Lannister is worth less than this." She kicked over the waste pail. Foul-smelling brown
ooze crept across the floor of the cell, soaking into the straw.
Jaime Lannister backed away from the spill as far as his chains would allow. "I may indeed have shit for
honor, I won't deny it, but I have never yet hired anyone to do my killing. Believe what you will, Lady
Stark, but if I had wanted your Bran dead I would have slain him myself."
Gods be merciful, he's telling the truth. "If you did not send the killer, your sister did."
"If so, I'd know. Cersei keeps no secrets from me."
"Then it was the Imp."
"Tyrion is as innocent as your Bran. He wasn't climbing around outside of anyone's window, spying."
"Then why did the assassin have his dagger?"
"What dagger was this?"
"It was so long," she said, holding her hands apart, "plain, but finely made, with a blade of Valyrian steel
and a dragonbone hilt. Your brother won it from Lord Baelish at the tourney on Prince Joffrey's name
day."
Lannister poured, drank, poured, and stared into his wine cup. "This wine seems to be improving as I
drink it. Imagine that. I seem to remember that dagger, now that you describe it. Won it, you say? How?"
"Wagering on you when you tilted against the Knight of Flowers." Yet when she heard her own words
Catelyn knew she had gotten it wrong. "No . . . was it the other way?"
"Tyrion always backed me in the lists," Jaime said, "but that day Ser Loras unhorsed me. A mischance, I
took the boy too lightly, but no matter. Whatever my brother wagered, he lost . . . but that dagger did
change hands, I recall it now. Robert showed it to me that night at the feast. His Grace loved to salt my
wounds, especially when drunk. And when was he not drunk?"
Tyrion Lannister had said much the same thing as they rode through the Mountains of the Moon, Catelyn
remembered. She had refused to believe him. Petyr had sworn otherwise, Petyr who had been almost a
brother, Petyr who loved her so much he fought a duel for her hand . . .
and yet if Jaime and Tyrion told the same tale, what did that mean? The brothers had not seen each
other since departing Winterfell more than a year ago. "Are you trying to deceive me?" Somewhere there
was a trap here.
"I've admitted to shoving your precious urchin out a window, what would it gain me to lie about this
knife?" He tossed down another cup of wine. "Believe what you will, I'm past caring what people say of
me. And it's my turn. Have Robert's brothers taken the field?"


"They have."
"Now there's a niggardly response. Give me more than that, or your next answer will be as poor."
"Stannis marches against King's Landing," she said grudgingly. "Renly is dead, murdered at Bitterbridge
by his brother, through some black art I do not understand."
"A pity," Jaime said. "I rather liked Renly, though Stannis is quite another tale. What side have the Tyrells
taken?"
"Renly, at first. Now, I could not say."
"Your boy must be feeling lonely."
"Robb was sixteen a few days past . . . a man grown, and a king. He's won every battle he's fought. The
last word we had from him, he had taken the Crag from the Westerlings."
"He hasn't faced my father yet, has he?"
"When he does, he'll defeat him. As he did you."
"He took me unawares. A craven's trick."
"You dare talk of tricks? Your brother Tyrion sent us cutthroats in envoy's garb, under a peace banner."
"If it were one of your sons in this cell, wouldn't his brothers do as much for him?"
My son has no brothers, she thought, but she would not share her pain with a creature such as this.
Jaime drank some more wine. "What's a brother's life when honor is at stake, eh?" Another sip. "Tyrion
is clever enough to realize that your son will never consent to ransom me."
Catelyn could not deny it. "Robb's bannermen would sooner see you dead. Rickard Karstark in
particular. You slew two of his sons in the Whispering Wood."
"The two with the white sunburst, were they?" Jaime gave a shrug. "If truth be told, it was your son that I
was trying to slay. The others got in my way. I killed them in fair fight, in the heat of battle. Any other
knight would have done the same."
"How can you still count yourself a knight, when you have forsaken every vow you ever swore?"
Jaime reached for the flagon to refill his cup. "So many vows . . .
they make you swear and swear. Defend the king. Obey the king. Keep his secrets. Do his bidding.
Your life for his. But obey your father. Love your sister. Protect the innocent. Defend the weak. Respect
the gods. Obey the laws. It's too much. No matter what you do, you're forsaking one vow or the other."
He took a healthy swallow of wine and closed his eyes for an instant, leaning his head back against the
patch of nitre on the wall. "I was the youngest man ever to wear the white cloak."
"And the youngest to betray all it stood for, Kingslayer."


"Kingslayer, " he pronounced carefully. "And such a king he was!" He lifted his cup. "To Aerys
Targaryen, the Second of His Name, Lord of the Seven Kingdoms and Protector of the Realm. And to
the sword that opened his throat. A golden sword, don't you know. Until his blood ran red down the
blade. Those are the Lannister colors, red and gold."
As he laughed, she realized the wine had done its work; Jaime had drained most of the flagon, and he
was drunk. "Only a man like you would be proud of such an act."
"I told you, there are no men like me. Answer me this, Lady Starkdid your Ned ever tell you the manner
of his father's death? Or his brother's? "
"They strangled Brandon while his father watched, and then killed Lord Rickard as well." An ugly tale,
and sixteen years old. Why was he asking about it now?
"Killed, yes, but how?"
"The cord or the axe, I suppose."
Jaime took a swallow, wiped his mouth. "No doubt Ned wished to spare you. His sweet young bride, if
not quite a maiden. Well, you wanted truth. Ask me. We made a bargain, I can deny you nothing. Ask."
"Dead is dead." I do not want to know this.
"Brandon was different from his brother, wasn't he? He had blood in his veins instead of cold water.
More like me."
"Brandon was nothing like you."
"If you say so. You and he were to wed."
"He was on his way to Riverrun when . . ." Strange, how telling it still made her throat grow tight, after all
these years. ". . . when he heard about Lyanna, and went to King's Landing instead. It was a rash thing to
do." She remembered how her own father had raged when the news had been brought to Riverrun. The
gallant fool, was what he called Brandon.
Jaime poured the last half cup of wine. "He rode into the Red Keep with a few companions, shouting for
Prince Rhaegar to come out and die. But Rhaegar wasn't there. Aerys sent his guards to arrest them all
for plotting his son's murder. The others were lords' sons too, it seems to me."
"Ethan Glover was Brandon's squire," Catelyn said. "He was the only one to survive. The others were
Jeffory Mallister, Kyle Royce, and Elbert Arryn, Jon Arryn's nephew and heir." It was queer how she still
remembered the names, after so many years. "Aerys accused them of treason and summoned their
fathers to court to answer the charge, with the sons as hostages. When they came, he had them murdered
without trial. Fathers and sons both."
"There were trials. Of a sort. Lord Rickard demanded trial by combat, and the king granted the request.
Stark armored himself as for battle, thinking to duel one of the Kingsguard. Me, perhaps. Instead they
took him to the throne room and suspended him from the rafters while two of Aerys's pyromancers
kindled a blaze beneath him. The king told him that fire was the champion of House Targaryen. So all
Lord Rickard needed to do to prove himself innocent of treason was . . . well, not burn.


"When the fire was blazing, Brandon was brought in. His hands were chained behind his back, and
around his neck was a wet leathern cord attached to a device the king had brought from Tyrosh. His legs
were left free, though, and his longsword was set down just beyond his reach.
"The pyromancers roasted Lord Rickard slowly, banking and fanning that fire carefully to get a nice even
heat. His cloak caught first, and then his surcoat, and soon he wore nothing but metal and ashes. Next he
would start to cook, Aerys promised . . . unless his son could free him. Brandon tried, but the more he
struggled, the tighter the cord constricted around his throat. In the end he strangled himself.
"As for Lord Rickard, the steel of his breastplate turned cherry-red before the end, and his gold melted
off his spurs and dripped down into the fire. I stood at the foot of the Iron Throne in my white armor and
white cloak, filling my head with thoughts of Cersei. After, Gerold Hightower himself took me aside and
said to me, 'You swore a vow to guard the king, not to judge him.' That was the White Bull, loyal to the
end and a better man than me, all agree."
"Aerys . . ." Catelyn could taste bile at the back of her throat. The story was so hideous she suspected it
had to be true. "Aerys was mad, the whole realm knew it, but if you would have me believe you slew him
to avenge Brandon Stark . . ."
"I made no such claim. The Starks were nothing to me. I will say, I think it passing odd that I am loved
by one for a kindness I never did, and reviled by so many for my finest act. At Robert's coronation, I
was made to kneel at the royal feet beside Grand Maester Pycelle and Varys the eunuch, so that he
might forgive us our crimes before he took us into his service. As for your Ned, he should have kissed
the hand that slew Aerys, but he preferred to scorn the arse he found sitting on Robert's
throne. I think Ned Stark loved Robert better than he ever loved his brother or his father . . . or even
you, my lady. He was never unfaithful to Robert, was he?" Jaime gave a drunken laugh. "Come, Lady
Stark, don't you find this all terribly amusing?"
"I find nothing about you amusing, Kingslayer."
"That name again. I don't think I'll fuck you after all, Littlefinger had you first, didn't he? I never eat off
another man's trencher. Besides, you're not half so lovely as my sister." His smile cut. "I've never lain with
any woman but Cersei. In my own way, I have been truer than your Ned ever was. Poor old dead Ned.
So who has shit for honor now, I ask you? What was the name of that bastard he fathered?"
Catelyn took a step backward. "Brienne. -
"No, that wasn't it." Jaime Lannister upended the flagon. A trickle ran down onto his face, bright as
blood. "Snow, that was the one. Such a white name . . . like the pretty cloaks they give us in the
Kingsguard when we swear our pretty oaths."
Brienne pushed open the door and stepped inside the cell. "You called, my lady?"
"Give me your sword." Catelyn held out her hand.
Chapter 56
THEON


The sky was a gloom of cloud, the woods dead and frozen. Roots grabbed at Theon's feet as he ran,
and bare branches lashed his face, leaving thin stripes of blood across his cheeks. He crashed through
heedless, breathless, icicles flying to pieces before him. Mercy, he sobbed. From behind came a
shuddering howl that curdled his blood. Mercy, mercy. When he glanced back over his shoulder he saw
them coming, great wolves the size of horses with the heads of small children. Oh, mercy, mercy. Blood
dripped from their mouths black as pitch, burning holes in the snow where it fell. Every stride brought
them closer. Theon tried to run faster, but his legs would not obey. The trees all had faces, and they were
laughing at him, laughing, and the howl came again. He could smell the hot breath of the beasts behind
him, a stink of brimstone and corruption. They're dead, dead, I saw them killed, he tried to shout, I saw
their heads dipped in tar, but when he opened his mouth only a moan emerged, and then something
touched him and he whirled, shouting . . .
. . . flailing for the dagger he kept by his bedside and managing only to knock it to the floor. Wex danced
away from him. Reek stood behind the mute, his face lit from below by the candle he carried. "What?"
Theon cried. Mercy. "What do you want? Why are you in my bedchamber? Why? "
"My lord prince," said Reek, "your sister has come to Winterfell. You asked to be informed at once if
she arrived."
"Past time," Theon muttered, pushing his fingers through his hair. He had begun to fear that Asha meant
to leave him to his fate. Mercy. He glanced outside the window, where the first vague light of dawn was
just brushing the towers of Winterfell. "Where is she?"
"Lorren took her and her men to the Great Hall to break their fast. Will you see her now?"
"Yes." Theon pushed off the blankets. The fire had burned down to embers. "Wex, hot water." He could
not let Asha see him disheveled and soaked with sweat. Wolves with children's faces . . . He shivered.
"Close the shutters." The bedchamber felt as cold as the dream forest had been.
All his dreams had been cold of late, and each more hideous than the one before. Last night he had
dreamed himself back in the mill again, on his knees dressing the dead. Their limbs were already
stiffening, so they seemed to resist sullenly as he fumbled at them with half-frozen fingers, tugging up
breeches and knotting laces, yanking fur-trimmed boots over hard unbending feet, buckling a studded
leather belt around a waist no bigger than the span of his hands. "This was never what I wanted," he told
them as he worked. "They gave me no choice." The corpses made no answer, but only grew colder and
heavier.
The night before, it had been the miller's wife. Theon had forgotten her name, but he remembered her
body, soft pillowy breasts and stretch marks on her belly, the way she clawed his back when he fucked
her. Last night in his dream he had been in bed with her once again, but this time she had teeth above and
below, and she tore out his throat even as she was gnawing off his manhood. It was madness. He'd seen
her die too. Gelmarr had cut her down with one blow of his axe as she cried to Theon for mercy. Leave
me, woman. It was him who killed you, not me. And he's dead as well. At least Gelmarr did not haunt
Theon's sleep.
The dream had receded by the time Wex returned with the water. Theon washed the sweat and sleep
from his body and took his own good time dressing. Asha had let him wait long enough; now it was her
turn. He chose a satin tunic striped black and gold and a fine leather jerkin with silver studs . . . and only


then remembered that his wretched sister put more stock in blades than beauty. Cursing, he tore off the
clothes and dressed again, in felted black wool and ringmail. Around his waist he buckled sword and
dagger, remembering the night she had humiliated him at his own father's table. Her sweet suckling babe,
yes. Well, I have a knife too, and know how to use it.
Last of all, he donned his crown, a band of cold iron slim as a finger, set with heavy chunks of black
diamond and nuggets of gold. It was misshapen and ugly, but there was no help for that. Mikken lay
buried in
the lichyard, and the new smith was capable of little more than nails and horseshoes. Theon consoled
himself with the reminder that it was only a prince's crown. He would have something much finer when he
was crowned king.
Outside his door, Reek waited with Urzen and Kromm. Theon fell in with them. These days, he took
guards with him everywhere he went, even to the privy. Winterfell wanted him dead. The very night they
had returned from Acorn Water, Gelmarr the Grim had tumbled down some steps and broken his back.
The next day, Aggar turned up with his throat slit ear to ear. Gynir Rednose became so wary that he
shunned wine, took to sleeping in byrnie, coif, and helm, and adopted the noisiest dog in the kennels to
give him warning should anyone try to steal up on his sleeping place. All the same, one morning the castle
woke to the sound of the little dog barking wildly. They found the pup racing around the well, and
Rednose floating in it, drowned.
He could not let the killings go unpunished. Farlen was as likely a suspect as any, so Theon sat in
judgment, called him guilty, and condemned him to death. Even that went sour. As he knelt to the block,
the kennelmaster said, "M'lord Eddard always did his own killings." Theon had to take the axe himself or
look a weakling. His hands were sweating, so the shaft twisted in his grip as he swung and the first blow
landed between Farlen's shoulders. It took three more cuts to hack through all that bone and muscle and
sever the head from the body, and afterward he was sick, remembering all the times they'd sat over a cup
of mead talking of hounds and hunting. I had no choice, he wanted to scream at the corpse. The ironborn
can't keep secrets, they had to die, and someone had to take the blame for it. He only wished he had
killed him cleaner. Ned Stark had never needed more than a single blow to take a man's head.
The killings stopped after Farlen's death, but even so his men continued sullen and anxious. "They fear
no foe in open battle," Black Lorren told him, "but it is another thing to dwell among enemies, never
knowing if the washerwoman means to kiss you or kill you, or whether the serving boy is filling your cup
with ale or bale. We would do well to leave this place."
"I am the Prince of Winterfell!" Theon had shouted. "This is my seat, no man will drive me from it. No,
nor woman either!"
Asha. It was her doing. My own sweet sister, may the Others bugger her with a sword. She wanted him
dead, so she could steal his place as their father's heir. That was why she had let him languish here,
ignoring the urgent commands he had sent her.
He found her in the high seat of the Starks, ripping a capon apart with her fingers. The hall rang with the
voices of her men, sharing stories
with Theon's own as they drank together. They were so loud that his entrance went all but unnoticed.
"Where are the rest?" he demanded of Reek. There were no more than fifty men at the trestle tables,
most of them his. Winterfell's Great Hall could have seated ten times the number.


"This is the whole o' the company, m'lord prince."
"The whole-how many men did she bring?"
"Twenty, by my count."
Theon Greyjoy strode to where his sister was sprawled. Asha was laughing at something one of her men
had said, but broke off at his approach. "Why, 'tis the Prince of Winterfell." She tossed a bone to one of
the dogs sniffing about the hall. Under that hawk's beak of a nose, her wide mouth twisted in a mocking
grin. "Or is it Prince of Fools?"
"Envy ill becomes a maid."
Asha sucked grease from her fingers. A lock of black hair fell across her eyes. Her men were shouting
for bread and bacon. They made a deal of noise, as few as they were. "Envy, Theon?"
"What else would you call it? With thirty men, I captured Winterfell in a night. You needed a thousand
and a moon's turn to take Deepwood Motte."
"Well, I'm no great warrior like you, brother," She quaffed half a horn of ale and wiped her mouth with
the back of her hand. "I saw the heads above your gates. Tell me true, which one gave you the fiercest
fight, the cripple or the babe?"
Theon could feel the blood rushing to his face. He took no joy from those heads, no more than he had in
displaying the headless bodies of the children before the castle. Old Nan stood with her soft toothless
mouth opening and closing soundlessly, and Farlen threw himself at Theon, snarling like one of his
hounds. Urzen and Cadwyl had to beat him senseless with the butts of their spears. How did I come to
this~ he remembered thinking as he stood over the fly-speckled bodies.
Only Maester Luwin had the stomach to come near. Stone-faced, the small grey man had begged leave
to sew the boys' heads back onto their shoulders, so they might be laid in the crypts below with the other
Stark dead.
"No," Theon had told him. "Not the crypts."
"But why, my lord? Surely they cannot harm you now. It is where they belong. All the bones of the
Starks-"
"I said no." He needed the heads for the wall, but he had burned the headless bodies that very day, in all
their finery. Afterward he had knelt amongst the bones and ashes to retrieve a slag of melted silver and
cracked jet, all that remained of the wolf's-head brooch that had once been Bran's. He had it still.
"I treated Bran and Rickon generously," he told his sister. "They brought their fate on themselves."
"As do we all, little brother."
His patience was at an end. "How do you expect me to hold Winterfell if you bring me only twenty
men?"
"Ten," Asha corrected. "The others return with me. You wouldn't want your own sweet sister to brave
the dangers of the wood without an escort, would you? There are direwolves prowling the dark." She


uncoiled from the great stone seat and rose to her feet. "Come, let us go somewhere we can speak more
privily."
She was right, he knew, though it galled him that she would make that decision. I should never have
come to the hall, he realized belatedly. I should have summoned her to me.
It was too late for that now, however. Theon had no choice but to lead Asha to Ned Stark's solar.
There, before the ashes of a dead fire, he blurted, "Dagmer's lost the fight at Torrhen's Square-"
"The old castellan broke his shield wall, yes," Asha said calmly. "What did you expect? This Ser Rodrik
knows the land intimately, as the Cleftjaw does not, and many of the northmen were mounted. The
ironborn lack the discipline to stand a charge of armored horse. Dagmer lives, be grateful for that much.
He's leading the survivors back toward the Stony Shore."
She knows more than I do, Theon realized. That only made him angrier. "The victory has given Leobald
Tallhart the courage to come out from behind his walls and join Ser Rodrik. And I've had reports that
Lord Manderly has sent a dozen barges upriver packed with knights, warhorses, and siege engines. The
Umbers are gathering beyond the Last River as well. I'll have an army at my gates before the moon turns,
and you bring me only ten men?"
"I need not have brought you any."
"I commanded you-"
"Father commanded me to take Deepwood Motte," she snapped. "He said nothing of me having to
rescue my little brother."
"Bugger Deepwood," he said. "It's a wooden pisspot on a hill. Winterfell is the heart of the land, but how
am I to hold it without a garrison? "
"You might have thought of that before you took it. Oh, it was cleverly done, I'll grant you. If only you'd
had the good sense to raze the castle and carry the two little princelings back to Pyke as hostages, you
might have won the war in a stroke."
"You'd like that, wouldn't you? To see my prize reduced to ruins and ashes."
"Your prize will be the doom of you. Krakens rise from the sea, Theon, or did you forget that during
your years among the wolves? Our strength is in our longships. My wooden pisspot sits close enough to
the sea for supplies and fresh men to reach me whenever they are needful. But Winterfell is hundreds of
leagues inland, ringed by woods, hills, and hostile holdfasts and castles. And every man in a thousand
leagues is your enemy now, make no mistake. You made certain of that when you mounted those heads
on your gatehouse." Asha shook her head. "How could you be such a bloody fool? Children . . ."
"They defied me!" he shouted in her face. "And it was blood for blood besides, two sons of Eddard
Stark to pay for Rodrik and Maron." The words tumbled out heedlessly, but Theon knew at once that his
father would approve. "I've laid my brothers' ghosts to rest."
"Our brothers," Asha reminded him, with a half smile that suggested she took his talk of vengeance well
salted. "Did you bring their ghosts from Pyke, brother? And here I thought they haunted only Father."
"When has a maid ever understood a man's need for revenge?" Even if his father did not appreciate the


gift of Winterfell, he must approve of Theon avenging his brothers!
Asha snorted back a laugh. "This Ser Rodrik may well feel the same manly need, did you think of that?
You are blood of my blood, Theon, whatever else you may be. For the sake of the mother who bore us
both, return to Deepwood Motte with me. Put Winterfell. to the torch and fall back while you still can."
"No." Theon adjusted his crown. "I took this castle and I mean to hold it."
His sister looked at him a long time. "Then hold it you shall," she said, "for the rest of your life." She
sighed. "I say it tastes like folly, but what would a shy maid know of such things?" At the door she gave
him one last mocking smile. "You ought to know, that's the ugliest crown I've ever laid eyes on. Did you
make it yourself?"
She left him fuming, and lingered no longer than was needful to feed and water her horses. Half the men
she'd brought returned with her as threatened, riding out the same Hunter's Gate that Bran and Rickon
had used for their escape.
Theon watched them go from atop the wall. As his sister vanished into the mists of the wolfswood he
found himself wondering why he had not listened and gone with her.
"Gone, has she?" Reek was at his elbow.
Theon had not heard him approach, nor smelled him either. He could not think of anyone he wanted to
see less. It made him uneasy to see the man walking around breathing, with what he knew. I should have
had
him killed after he did the others, he reflected, but the notion made him nervous. Unlikely as it seemed,
Reek could read and write, and he was possessed of enough base cunning to have hidden an account of
what they'd done.
"M'lord prince, if you'll pardon me saying, it's not right for her to abandon you. And ten men, that won't
be near enough."
"I am well aware of that," Theon said. So was Asha.
"Well, might be I could help you," said Reek. "Give me a horse and bag o' coin, and I could find you
some good fellows."
Theon narrowed his eyes. "How many?"
"A hundred, might be. Two hundred. Maybe more." He smiled, his pale eyes glinting. "I was born up
north here. I know many a man, and many a man knows Reek."
Two hundred men were not an army, but you didn't need thousands to hold a castle as strong as
Winterfell. So long as they could learn which end of a spear did the killing, they might make all the
difference. "Do as you say and you'll not find me ungrateful. You can name your own reward."
"Well, m'lord, I haven't had no woman since I was with Lord Ramsay," Reek said. "I've had my eye on
that Palla, and I hear she's already been had, so . . ."
He had gone too far with Reek to turn back now. "Two hundred men and she's yours. But a man less


and you can go back to fucking pigs."
Reek was gone before the sun went down, carrying a bag of Stark silver and the last of Theon's hopes.
Like as not, I'll never see the wretch again, he thought bitterly, but even so the chance had to be taken.
That night he dreamed of the feast Ned Stark had thrown when King Robert came to Winterfell. The
hall rang with music and laughter, though the cold winds were rising outside. At first it was all wine and
roast meat, and Theon was making japes and eyeing the serving girls and having himself a fine time . . .
until he noticed that the room was growing darker. The music did not seem so jolly then; he heard
discords and strange silences, and notes that hung in the air bleeding. Suddenly the wine turned bitter in
his mouth, and when he looked up from his cup he saw that he was dining with the dead.
King Robert sat with his guts spilling out on the table from the great gash in his belly, and Lord Eddard
was headless beside him. Corpses lined the benches below, grey-brown flesh sloughing off their bones as
they raised their cups to toast, worms crawling in and out of the holes that were their eyes. He knew
them, every one; Jory Cassel and Fat Tom, Porther and Cayn and Hullen the master of horse, and all the
others who had ridden south to King's Landing never to return. Mikken and Chayle
sat together, one dripping blood and the other water. Benfred Tallhart and his Wild Hares filled most of
a table. The miller's wife was there as well, and Farlen, even the wildling Theon had killed in the
wolfswood the day he had saved Bran's life.
But there were others with faces he had never known in life, faces he had seen only in stone. The slim,
sad girl who wore a crown of pale blue roses and a white gown spattered with gore could only be
Lyanna. Her brother Brandon stood beside her, and their father Lord Rickard just behind. Along the
walls figures half -seen moved through the shadows, pale shades with long grim faces. The sight of them
sent fear shivering through Theon sharp as a knife. And then the tall doors opened with a crash, and a
freezing gale blew down the hall, and Robb came walking out of the night. Grey Wind stalked beside,
eyes burning, and man and wolf alike bled from half a hundred savage wounds.
Theon woke with a scream, startling Wex so badly that the boy ran naked from the room. When his
guards burst in with drawn swords, he ordered them to bring him the maester. By the time Luwin arrived
rumpled and sleepy, a cup of wine had steadied Theon's hands, and he was feeling ashamed of his panic.
"A dream," he muttered, "that was all it was. It meant nothing."
"Nothing," Luwin agreed solemnly. He left a sleeping draught, but Theon poured it down the privy shaft
the moment he was gone. Luwin was a man as well as a maester, and the man had no love for him. He
wants me to sleep, yes . . . to sleep and never wake. He'd like that as much as Asha would.
He sent for Kyra, kicked shut the door, climbed on top of her, and fucked the wench with a fury he'd
never known was in him, By the time he finished, she was sobbing, her neck and breasts covered with
bruises and bite marks. Theon shoved her from the bed and threw her a blanket. "Get out."
Yet even then, he could not sleep.
Come dawn, he dressed and went outside, to walk along the outer walls. A brisk autumn wind was
swirling through the battlements. It reddened his cheeks and stung his eyes. He watched the forest go
from grey to green below him as light filtered through the silent trees. On his left he could see tower tops
above the inner wall, their roofs gilded by the rising sun. The red leaves of the weirwood were a blaze of
flame among the green. Ned Stark's tree, he thought, and Stark's wood, Stark's castle, Stark's sword,
Stark's gods. This is their place, not mine. I am a Greyjoy of Pyke, born to paint a kraken on my shield


and sail the great salt sea. I should have gone with Asha.
On their iron spikes atop the gatehouse, the heads waited.
Theon gazed at them silently while the wind tugged on his cloak with small ghostly hands. The miller's
boys had been of an age with Bran and Rickon, alike in size and coloring, and once Reek had flayed the
skin from their faces and dipped their heads in tar, it was easy to see familiar features in those misshapen
lumps of rotting flesh. People were such fools. If we'd said they were rams' heads, they would have seen
horns.
CHAPTER 57
SANSA
They had been singing in the sept all morning, since the first report of enemy sails had reached the castle.
The sound of their voices mingled with the whicker of horses, the clank of steel, and the groaning hinges
of the great bronze gates to make a strange and fearful music. In the sept they sing for the Mother's
mercy but on the walls it's the Warrior they pray to, and all in silence. She remembered how Septa
Mordane used to tell them that the Warrior and the Mother were only two faces of the same great god.
But if there is only one, whose prayers will be heard?
Ser Meryn Trant held the blood bay for Joffrey to mount. Boy and horse alike wore gilded mail and
enameled crimson plate, with matching golden lions on their heads. The pale sunlight flashed off the golds
and reds every time Joff moved. Bright, shining, and empty, Sansa thought.
The imp was mounted on a red stallion, armored more plainly than the king in battle gear that made him
look like a little boy dressed up in his father's clothes. But there was nothing childish about the battle-axe
slung below his shield. Ser Mandon Moore rode at his side, white steel icy bright. When Tyrion saw her
he turned his horse her way. "Lady Sansa," he called from the saddle, "surely my sister has asked you to
join the other highborn ladies in Maegor's?"
"She has, my lord, but King Joffrey sent for me to see him off. I mean to visit the sept as well, to pray."
"I won't ask for whom." His mouth twisted oddly; if that was a smile,
off with shouts and cheers. When the last was gone, a sudden stillness settled over the yard, like the hush
before a storm.
Through the quiet, the singing pulled at her. Sansa turned toward the sept. Two stableboys followed, and
one of the guards whose watch was ended. Others fell in behind them.
Sansa had never seen the sept so crowded, nor so brightly lit; great shafts of rainbow-colored sunlight
slanted down through the crystals in the high windows, and candles burned on every side, their little
flames twinkling like stars. The Mother's altar and the Warrior's swam in light, but Smith and Crone and
Maid and Father had their worshipers as well, and there were even a few flames dancing below the
Stranger's halfhuman face . . . for what was Stannis Baratheon, if not the Stranger come to judge them?
Sansa visited each of the Seven in turn, lighting a candle at each altar, and then found herself a place on


the benches between a wizened old washer woman and a boy no older than Rickon, dressed in the fine
linen tunic of a knight's son. The old woman's hand was bony and hard with callus, the boy's small and
soft, but it was good to have someone to hold on to. The air was hot and heavy, smelling of incense and
sweat, crystal-kissed and candle-bright; it made her dizzy to breathe it.
She knew the hymn; her mother had taught it to her once, a long time ago in Winterfell. She joined her
voice to theirs.
Gentle Mother, font of mercy, save our sons from war, we pray, stay the swords and stay the arrows,
let them know a better day. Gentle Mother, strength of women, help our daughters through this fray,
soothe the wrath and tame the fury, teach us all a kinder way.
Across the city, thousands had jammed into the Great Sept of Baelor on Visenya's Hill, and they would
be singing too, their voices swelling out over the city, across the river, and up into the sky. Surely the
gods must hear us, she thought.
Sansa knew most of the hymns, and followed along on those she did not know as best she could. She
sang along with grizzled old serving men and anxious young wives, with serving girls and soldiers, cooks
and falconers, knights and knaves, squires and spit boys and nursing mothers. She sang with those inside
the castle walls and those without, sang with all the city. She sang for mercy, for the living and the dead
alike, for Bran and Rickon and Robb, for her sister Arya and her bastard brother Jon
Snow, away off on the Wall. She sang for her mother and her father, for her grandfather Lord Hoster
and her uncle Edmure Tully, for her friend Jeyne Poole, for old drunken King Robert, for Septa Mordane
and Ser Dontos and Jory Cassel and Maester Luwin, for all the brave knights and soldiers who would
die today, and for the children and the wives who would mourn them, and finally, toward the end, she
even sang for Tyrion the Imp and for the Hound. He is no true knight but he saved me all the same, she
told the Mother. Save him if you can, and gentle the rage inside him.
But when the septon climbed on high and called upon the gods to protect and defend their true and
noble king, Sansa got to her feet. The aisles were jammed with people. She had to shoulder through
while the septon called upon the Smith to lend strength to Joffrey's sword and shield, the Warrior to give
him courage, the Father to defend him in his need. Let his sword break and his shield shatter, Sansa
thought coldly as she shoved out through the doors, let his courage fail him and every man desert him.
A few guards paced along on the gatehouse battlements, but otherwise the castle seemed empty. Sansa
stopped and listened. Away off, she could hear the sounds of battle. The singing almost drowned them
out, but the sounds were there if you had the ears to hear: the deep moan of warhorns, the creak and
thud of catapults flinging stones, the splashes and splinterings, the crackle of burning pitch and thrum of
scorpions loosing their yard-long iron-headed shafts . . . and beneath it all, the cries of dying men.
It was another sort of song, a terrible song. Sansa pulled the hood of her cloak up over her ears, and
hurried toward Maegor's Holdfast, the castle-within-a-castle where the queen had promised they would
all be safe. At the foot of the drawbridge, she came upon Lady Tanda and her two daughters. Falyse had
arrived yesterday from Castle Stokeworth with a small troop of soldiers. She was trying to coax her
sister onto the bridge, but Lollys clung to her maid, sobbing, "I don't want to, I don't want to, I don't
want to."
"The battle is begun," Lady Tanda said in a brittle voice.
"I don't want to, I don't want to."


There was no way Sansa could avoid them. She greeted them courteously. "May I be of help?"
Lady Tanda flushed with shame. "No, my lady, but we thank you kindly. You must forgive my daughter,
she has not been well."
"I don't want to." Lollys clutched at her maid, a slender, pretty girl with short dark hair who looked as
though she wanted nothing so much as to shove her mistress into the dry moat, onto those iron spikes.
"Please, please, I don't want to."
Sansa spoke to her gently. "We'll all be thrice protected inside, and there's to be food and drink and
song as well."
Lollys gaped at her, mouth open. She had dull brown eyes that always seemed to be wet with tears. "I
don't want to."
"You have to," her sister Falyse said sharply, "and that is the end of it. Shae, help me." They each took
an elbow, and together half dragged and half carried Lollys across the bridge. Sansa followed with their
mother. "She's been sick," Lady Tanda said. If a babe can be termed a sickness, Sansa thought. It was
common gossip that Lollys was with child.
The two guards at the door wore the lion-crested helms and crimson cloaks of House Lannister, but
Sansa knew they were only dressed-up sellswords. Another sat at the foot of the stair-a real guard
would have been standing, not sitting on a step with his halberd across his kneesbut he rose when he saw
them and opened the door to usher them inside.
The Queen's Ballroom was not a tenth the size of the castle's Great Hall, only half as big as the Small
Hall in the Tower of the Hand, but it could still seat a hundred, and it made up in grace what it lacked in
space. Beaten silver mirrors backed every wall sconce, so the torches burned twice as bright; the walls
were paneled in richly carved wood, and sweet-smelling rushes covered the floors. From the gallery
above drifted down the merry strains of pipes and fiddle. A line of arched windows ran along the south
wall, but they had been closed off with heavy draperies. Thick velvet hangings admitted no thread of light,
and would muffle the sound of prayer and war alike. It makes no matter, Sansa thought. The war is with
us.
Almost every highborn woman in the city sat at the long trestle tables, along with a handful of old men
and young boys. The women were wives, daughters, mothers, and sisters. Their men had gone out to
fight Lord Stannis. Many would not return. The air was heavy with the knowledge. As Joffrey's
betrothed, Sansa had the seat of honor on the queen's right hand. She was climbing the dais when she
saw the man standing in the shadows by the back wall. He wore a long hauberk of oiled black mail, and
held his sword before him: her father's greatsword, Ice, near as tall as he was. Its point rested on the
floor, and his hard bony fingers curled around the crossguard on either side of the grip. Sansa's breath
caught in her throat. Ser Ilyn Payne seemed to sense her stare. He turned his gaunt, pox-ravaged face
toward her.
"What is he doing here?" she asked Osfryd Kettleblack. He captained the queen's new red cloak guard.
Osfryd grinned. "Her Grace expects she'll have need of him before the night's done. "
Ser Ilyn was the King's justice. There was only one service he might be needed for. Whose head does
she want?


"All rise for Her Grace, Cersei of House Lannister, Queen Regent and Protector of the Realm," the royal
steward cried.
Cersei's gown was snowy linen, white as the cloaks of the Kingsguard. Her long dagged sleeves showed
a lining of gold satin. Masses of bright yellow hair tumbled to her bare shoulders in thick curls. Around
her slender neck hung a rope of diamonds and emeralds. The white made her look strangely innocent,
almost maidenly, but there were points of color on her cheeks.
"Be seated," the queen said when she had taken her place on the dais, "and be welcome." Osfryd
Kettleblack held her chair; a page performed the same service for Sansa. "You look pale, Sansa," Cersei
observed. "Is your red flower still blooming?"
I'Yes."
"How apt. The men will bleed out there, and you in here." The queen signaled for the first course to be
served.
"Why is Ser Ilyn here?" Sansa blurted out.
The queen glanced at the mute headsman. "To deal with treason, and to defend us if need be. He was a
knight before he was a headsman." She pointed her spoon toward the end of the hall, where the tall
wooden doors had been closed and barred. "When the axes smash down those doors, you may be glad
of him."
I would be gladder if it were the Hound, Sansa thought. Harsh as he was, she did not believe Sandor
Clegane would let any harm come to her. "Won't your guards protect us?"
"And who will protect us from my guards?" The queen gave Osfryd a sideways look. "Loyal sellswords
are rare as virgin whores. If the battle is lost my guards will trip on those crimson cloaks in their haste to
rip them off. They'll steal what they can and flee, along with the serving men, washer women, and
stableboys, all out to save their own worthless hides. Do you have any notion what happens when a city
is sacked, Sansa? No, you wouldn't, would you? All you know of life you learned from singers, and
there's such a dearth of good sacking songs."
"True knights would never harm women and children." The words rang hollow in her ears even as she
said them.
"True knights." The queen seemed to find that wonderfully amusing. "No doubt you're right. So why
don't you just eat your broth like a good girl and wait for Symeon Star-Eyes and Prince Aemon the
Dragonknight to come rescue you, sweetling. I'm sure it won't be very long now."
CHAPTER 58
DAVOS
Blackwater Bay was rough and choppy, whitecaps everywhere. Black Betha rode the flood tide, her sail


cracking and snapping at each shift of wind. Wraith and Lady Marya sailed beside her, no more than
twenty yards between their hulls. His sons could keep a line. Davos took pride in that.
Across the sea warhorns boomed, deep throaty moans like the calls of monstrous serpents, repeated
ship to ship. "Bring down the sail," Davos commanded. "Lower mast. Oarsmen to your oars." His son
Matthos relayed the commands. The deck of Black Betha churned as crewmen ran to their tasks,
pushing through the soldiers who always seemed to be in the way no matter where they stood. Ser Imry
had decreed that they would enter the river on oars alone, so as not to expose their sails to the scorpions
and spitfires on the walls of King's Landing.
Davos could make out Fury well to the southeast, her sails shimmering golden as they came down, the
crowned stag of Baratheon blazoned on the canvas. From her decks Stannis Baratheon had commanded
the assault on Dragonstone sixteen years before, but this time he had chosen to ride with his army,
trusting Fury and the command of his fleet to his wife's brother Ser Imry, who'd come over to his cause
at Storm's End with Lord Alester and all the other Florents.
Davos knew Fury as well as he knew his own ships. Above her three hundred oars was a deck given
over wholly to scorpions, and topside she mounted catapults fore and aft, large enough to fling barrels of
burning
pitch. A most formidable ship, and very swift as well, although Ser Irnry had packed her bow to stern
with armored knights and men-at-arms, at some cost to her speed.
The warhorns sounded again, commands drifting back from the Fury. Davos felt a tingle in his missing
fingertips. "Out oars," he shouted. "Form line." A hundred blades dipped down into the water as the
oarmaster's drum began to boom. The sound was like the beating of a great slow heart, and the oars
moved at every stroke, a hundred men pulling as one.
Wooden wings had sprouted from the Wraith and Lady Marya as well. The three galleys kept pace,
their blades churning the water. "Slow cruise," Davos called. Lord Velaryon's silver-hulled Pride of
Driftmark had moved into her position to port of Wraith, and Bold Laughter was coming up fast, but
Harridan was only now getting her oars into the water and Seahorse was still struggling to bring down her
mast. Davos looked astern. Yes, there, far to the south, that could only be Swordfish, lagging as ever.
She dipped two hundred oars and mounted the largest ram in the fleet, though Davos had grave doubts
about her captain.
He could hear soldiers shouting encouragement to each other across the water. They'd been little more
than ballast since Storm's End, and were eager to get at the foe, confident of victory. In that, they were of
one mind with their admiral, Lord High Captain Ser Imry Florent.
Three days past, he had summoned all his captains to a war council aboard the Fury while the fleet lay
anchored at the mouth of the Wendwater, in order to acquaint them with his dispositions. Davos and his
sons had been assigned a place in the second line of battle, well out on the dangerous starboard wing. "A
place of honor," Allard had declared, well satisfied with the chance to prove his valor. "A place of peril,"
his father had pointed out. His sons had given him pitying looks, even young Maric. The Onion Knight
has become an old woman, he could hear them thinking, still a smuggler at heart.
Well, the last was true enough, he would make no apologies for it. Seaworth had a lordly ring to it, but
down deep he was still Davos of Flea Bottom, coming home to his city on its three high hills. He knew as
much of ships and sails and shores as any man in the Seven Kingdoms, and had fought his share of
desperate fights sword to sword on a wet deck. But to this sort of battle he came a maiden, nervous and


afraid. Smugglers do not sound warhorns and raise banners. When they smell danger, they raise sail and
run before the wind.
Had he been admiral, he might have done it all differently. For a start, he would have sent a few of his
swiftest ships to probe upriver and see what awaited them, instead of smashing in headlong. When he
had suggested as much to Ser Imry, the Lord High Captain had thanked him
courteously, but his eyes were not as polite. Who is this lowborn craven? those eyes asked. Is he the
one who bought his knighthood with an onion?
With four times as many ships as the boy king, Ser Imry saw no need for caution or deceptive tactics.
He had organized the fleet into ten lines of battle, each of twenty ships. The first two lines would sweep
up the river to engage and destroy Joffrey's little fleet, or "the boy's toys" as Ser Imry dubbed them, to
the mirth of his lordly captains. Those that followed would land companies of archers and spearmen
beneath the city walls, and only then join the fight on the river. The smaller, slower ships to the rear would
ferry over the main part of Stannis's host from the south bank, protected by Salladhor Saan and his
Lyseni, who would stand out in the bay in case the Lannisters had other ships hidden up along the coast,
poised to sweep down on their rear.
To be fair, there was reason for Ser Imry's haste. The winds had not used them kindly on the voyage up
from Storm's End. They had lost two cogs to the rocks of Shipbreaker Bay on the very day they set sail,
a poor way to begin. One of the Myrish galleys had foundered in the Straits of Tarth, and a storm had
overtaken them as they were entering the Gullet, scattering the fleet across half the narrow sea. All but
twelve ships had finally regrouped behind the sheltering spine of Massey's Hook, in the calmer waters of
Blackwater Bay, but not before they had lost considerable time.
Stannis would have reached the Rush days ago. The kingsroad ran from Storm's End straight to King's
Landing, a much shorter route than by sea, and his host was largely mounted; near twenty thousand
knights, light horse, and freeriders, Renly's unwilling legacy to his brother. They would have made good
time, but armored destriers and twelve-foot lances would avail them little against the deep waters of the
Blackwater Rush and the high stone walls of the city. Stannis would be camped with his lords on the
south bank of the river, doubtless seething with impatience and wondering what Ser Imry had done with
his fleet.
Off Merling Rock two days before, they had sighted a half-dozen fishing skiffs. The fisherfolk had fled
before them, but one by one they had been overtaken and boarded. "A small spoon of victory is just the
thing to settle the stomach before battle," Ser Imry had declared happily. "It makes the men hungry for a
larger helping." But Davos had been more interested in what the captives had to say about the defenses
at King's Landing. The dwarf had been busy building some sort of boom to close off the mouth of the
river, though the fishermen differed as to whether the work had been completed or not. He found himself
wishing it had. If the river was closed to them, Ser Imry would have no choice but to pause and take
stock.
The sea was full of sound: shouts and calls, warhorns and drums and the trill of pipes, the slap of wood
on water as thousands of oars rose and fell. "Keep line," Davos shouted. A gust of wind tugged at his old
green cloak. A jerkin of boiled leather and a pothelm at his feet were his only armor. At sea, heavy steel
was as like to cost a man his life as to save it, he believed. Ser Imry and the other highborn captains did
not share his view; they glittered as they paced their decks.
Harridan and Seahorse had slipped into their places now, and Lord Celtigar's Red Claw beyond them.
To starboard of Allard's Lady Marya were the three galleys that Stannis had seized from the unfortunate


Lord Sunglass, Piety, Prayer, and Devotion, their decks crawling with archers. Even Swordfish was
closing, lumbering and rolling through a thickening sea under both oars and sail. A ship of that many oars
ought to be much faster, Davos reflected with disapproval. It's that ram she carries, it's too big, she has
no balance.
The wind was gusting from the south, but under oars it made no matter. They would be sweeping in on
the flood tide, but the Lannisters would have the river current to their favor, and the Blackwater Rush
flowed strong and swift where it met the sea. The first shock would inevitably favor the foe. We are fools
to meet them on the Blackwater, Davos thought. In any encounter on the open sea, their battle lines
would envelop the enemy fleet on both flanks, driving them inward to destruction. On the river, though,
the numbers and weight of Ser Imry's ships would count for less. They could not dress more than twenty
ships abreast, lest they risk tangling their oars and colliding with each other.
Beyond the line of warships, Davos could see the Red Keep up on Aegon's High Hill, dark against a
lemon sky, with the mouth of the Rush opening out below. Across the river the south shore was black
with men and horses, stirring like angry ants as they caught sight of the approaching ships. Stannis would
have kept them busy building rafts and fletching arrows, yet even so the waiting would have been a hard
thing to bear. Trumpets sounded from among them, tiny and brazen, soon swallowed by the roar of a
thousand shouts. Davos closed his stubby hand around the pouch that held his fingerbones, and mouthed
a silent prayer for luck.
Fury herself would center the first line of battle, flanked by the Lord Steffon and the Stag of the Sea,
each of two hundred oars. On the port and starboard wings were the hundreds: Lady Harra, Brightfish,
Laughing Lord, Sea Demon, Horned Honor, Ragged Jenna, Trident Three, Swift Sword, Princess
Rhaenys, Dog's Nose, Sceptre, Faithful, Red Raven, Queen Alysanne, Cat, Courageous, and
Dragonsbane. From every stern streamed the fiery heart of the Lord of Light, red and yellow and orange.
Behind Davos and his sons came another line of hundreds commanded
by knights and lordly captains, and then the smaller, slower Myrish contingent, none dipping more than
eighty oars. Farther back would come the sailed ships, carracks and lumbering great cogs, and last of all
Salladhor Saan in his proud Valyrian, a towering three-hundred, paced by the rest of his galleys with their
distinctive striped hulls. The flamboyant Lyseni princeling had not been pleased to be assigned the rear
guard, but it was clear that Ser Imry trusted him no more than Stannis did. Too many complaints, and too
much talk of the gold he was owed. Davos was sorry nonetheless. Salladhor Saan was a resourceful old
pirate, and his crews were born seamen, fearless in a fight. They were wasted in the rear.
Ahooooooooooooooooooooooooo. The call rolled across whitecaps and churning oars from the
forecastle of the Fury: Ser Imry was sounding the attack. Ahoooooooooooooooooooo,
ahooooooooooooooooooooo.
Swordfish had joined the line at last, though she still had her sail raised. "Fast cruise," Davos barked.
The drum began to beat more quickly, and the stroke picked up, the blades of the oars cutting water,
splash-swoosh, splash-swoosh, splash-swoosh. On deck, soldiers banged sword against shield, while
archers quietly strung their bows and pulled the first arrow from the quivers at their belts. The galleys of
the first line of battle obscured his vision, so Davos paced the deck searching for a better view. He saw
no sign of any boom; the mouth of the river was open, as if to swallow them all. Except . . .
In his smuggling days, Davos had often jested that he knew the waterfront at King's Landing a deal
better than the back of his hand, since he had not spent a good part of his life sneaking in and out of the
back of his hand. The squat towers of raw new stone that stood opposite one another at the mouth of the
Blackwater might mean nothing to Ser Irnry Florent, but to him it was as if two extra fingers had sprouted


from his knuckles.
Shading his eyes against the westering sun, he peered at those towers more closely. They were too small
to hold much of a garrison. The one on the north bank was built against the bluff with the Red Keep
frowning above; its counterpart on the south shore had its footing in the water. They dug a cut through the
bank, he knew at once. That would make the tower very difficult to assault; attackers would need to
wade through the water or bridge the little channel. Stannis had posted bowmen below, to fire up at the
defenders whenever one was rash enough to lift his head above the ramparts, but otherwise had not
troubled.
Something flashed down low where the dark water swirled around the base of the tower. It was sunlight
on steel, and it told Davos Seaworth all he needed to know. A chain boom . . . and yet they have not
closed the river against us. Why?
He could make a guess at that as well, but there was no time to
consider the question. A shout went up from the ships ahead, and the warhorns blew again: the enemy
was before them.
Between the flashing oars of Sceptre and Faithful, Davos saw a thin line of galleys drawn across the
river, the sun glinting off the gold paint that marked their hulls. He knew those ships as well as he knew
his own. When he had been a smuggler, he'd always felt safer knowing whether the sail on the horizon
marked a fast ship or a slow one, and whether her captain was a young man hungry for glory or an old
one serving out his days.
Ahooooooooooooooooooooooooooo, the warhorns called. "Battle speed," Davos shouted. On port
and starboard he heard Dale and Allard giving the same command. Drums began to beat furiously, oars
rose and fell, and Black Betha surged forward. When he glanced toward Wraith, Dale gave him a salute.
Swordfish was lagging once more, wallowing in the wake of the smaller ships to either side; elsewise the
line was straight as a shield wall.
The river that had seemed so narrow from a distance now stretched wide as a sea, but the city had
grown gigantic as well. Glowering down from Aegon's High Hill, the Red Keep commanded the
approaches. Its iron-crowned battlements, massive towers, and thick red walls gave it the aspect of a
ferocious beast hunched above river and streets. The bluffs on which it crouched were steep and rocky,
spotted with lichen and gnarled thorny trees. The fleet would have to pass below the castle to reach the
harbor and city beyond.
The first line was in the river now, but the enemy galleys were backing water. They mean to draw us in.
They want us jammed close, constricted, no way to sweep around their flanks . . . and with that boom
behind us. He paced his deck, craning his neck for a better look at Joffrey's fleet. The boy's toys
included the ponderous Godsgrace, he saw, the old slow Prince Aemon, the Lady of Silk and her sister
Lady's Shame, Wildwind, Kingslander, White Hart, Lance, Seaflower. But where was the Lionstar?
Where was the beautiful Lady Lyanna that King Robert had named in honor of the maid he'd loved and
lost? And where was King Robert's Hammer? She was the largest war galley in the royal fleet, four
hundred oars, the only warship the boy king owned capable of overmatching Fury. By rights she should
have formed the heart of any defense.
Davos tasted a trap, yet he saw no sign of any foes sweeping in behind them, only the great fleet of
Stannis Baratheon in their ordered ranks, stretching back to the watery horizon. Will they raise the chain
and cut us in two? He could not see what good that would serve. The ships left out in the bay could still


land men north of the city; a slower crossing, but safer.
A flight of flickering orange birds took wing from the castle, twenty or thirty of them; pots of burning
pitch, arcing out over the river trailing threads of flame. The waters ate most, but a few found the decks
of galleys in the first line of battle, spreading flame when they shattered. Men-at-arms were scrambling on
Queen Alysanne's deck, and he could see smoke rising from three different spots on Dragonsbane,
nearest the bank. By then a second flight was on its way, and arrows were falling as well, hissing down
from the archers' nests that studded the towers above. A soldier tumbled over Cat's gunwale, crashed off
the oars, and sank. The first man to die today, Davos thought, but he will not be the last.
Atop the Red Keep's battlements streamed the boy king's banners: the crowned stag of Baratheon on its
gold field, the lion of Lannister on crimson. More pots of pitch came flying. Davos heard men shriek as
fire spread across Courageous. Her oarsmen were safe below, protected from missiles by the half deck
that sheltered them, but the men-at-arms crowded topside were not so fortunate. The starboard wing
was taking all the damage, as he had feared. It will be our turn soon, he reminded himself, uneasy. Black
Betha was well in range of the firepots, being the sixth ship out from the north bank. To starboard, she
had only Allard's Lady Marya, the ungainly Swordfish-so far behind now that she was nearer the third
line than the second-and Piety, Prayer, and Devotion, who would need all the godly intervention they
could get, placed as vulnerably as they were.
As the second line swept past the twin towers, Davos took a closer look. He could see three links of a
huge chain snaking out from a hole no bigger than a man's head and disappearing under the water. The
towers had a single door, set a good twenty feet off the ground. Bowmen on the roof of the northern
tower were firing down at Prayer and Devotion. The archers on Devotion fired back, and Davos heard a
man scream as the arrows found him.
"Captain ser." His son Matthos was at his elbow. "Your helm." Davos took it with both hands and slid it
over his head. The pothelm. was visorless; he hated having his vision impeded.
By then the pitch pots were raining down around them. He saw one shatter on the deck of Lady Marya,
but Allard's crew quickly beat it out. To port, warhorns sounded from the Pride of Driftmark. The oars
flung up sprays of water with every stroke. The yard-long shaft of a scorpion came down not two feet
from Matthos and sank into the wood of the deck, thrumming. Ahead, the first line was within bowshot
of the enemy; flights of arrows flew between the ships, hissing like striking snakes.
South of the Blackwater, Davos saw men dragging crude rafts toward
the water while ranks and columns formed up beneath a thousand streaming banners. The fiery heart
was everywhere, though the tiny black stag imprisoned in the flames was too small to make out. We
should be flying the crowned stag, he thought. The stag was King Robert's sigil, the city would rejoice to
see it. This stranger's standard serves only to set men against us.
He could not behold the fiery heart without thinking of the shadow Melisandre had birthed in the gloom
beneath Storm's End. At least we fight this battle in the light, with the weapons of honest men, he told
himself. The red woman and her dark children would have no part of it. Stannis had shipped her back to
Dragonstone with his bastard nephew Edric Storm. His captains and bannermen had insisted that a
battlefield was no place for a woman. only the queen's men had dissented, and then not loudly. All the
same, the king had been on the point of refusing them until Lord Bryce Caron said, "Your Grace, if the
sorceress is with us, afterward men will say it was her victory, not yours. They will say you owe your
crown to her spells." That had turned the tide. Davos himself had held his tongue during the arguments,
but if truth be told, he had not been sad to see the back of her. He wanted no part of Melisandre or her


god.
To starboard, Devotion drove toward shore, sliding out a plank. Archers scrambled into the shallows,
holding their bows high over their heads to keep the strings dry. They splashed ashore on the narrow
strand beneath the bluffs. Rocks came bouncing down from the castle to crash among them, and arrows
and spears as well, but the angle was steep and the missiles seemed to do little damage.
Prayer landed two dozen yards upstream and Piety was slanting toward the bank when the defenders
came pounding down the riverside, the hooves of their warhorses sending up gouts of water from the
shallows. The knights fell among the archers like wolves among chickens, driving them back toward the
ships and into the river before most could notch an arrow. Men-at-arms rushed to defend them with
spear and axe, and in three heartbeats the scene had turned to blood-soaked chaos. Davos recognized
the dog's-head helm of the Hound. A white cloak streamed from his shoulders as he rode his horse up
the plank onto the deck of Prayer, hacking down anyone who blundered within reach.
Beyond the castle, King's Landing rose on its hills behind the encircling walls. The riverfront was a
blackened desolation; the Lannisters had burned everything and pulled back within the Mud Gate. The
charred spars of sunken hulks sat in the shallows, forbidding access to the long stone quays. We shall
have no landing there. He could see the tops of three huge trebuchets behind the Mud Gate. High on
Visenya's
Hill, sunlight blazed off the seven crystal towers of the Great Sept of Baelor.
Davos never saw the battle joined, but he heard it; a great rending crash as two galleys came together.
He could not say which two. Another impact echoed over the water an instant later, and then a third.
Beneath the screech of splintering wood, he heard the deep thrum-thump of the Fury's fore catapult. Stag
of the Sea split one of Joffrey's galleys clean in two, but Dog's Nose was afire and Queen Alysanne was
locked between Lady of Silk and Lady's Shame, her crew fighting the boarders rail-to-rail.
Directly ahead, Davos saw the enemy's Kingslander drive between Faithful and Sceptre. The former slid
her starboard oars out of the way before impact, but Sceptre's portside oars snapped like so much
kindling as Kingslander raked along her side. "Loose," Davos commanded, and his bowmen sent a
withering rain of shafts across the water. He saw Kingslander's captain fall, and tried to recall the man's
name.
Ashore, the arms of the great trebuchets rose one, two, three, and a hundred stones climbed high into
the yellow sky. Each one was as large as a man's head; when they fell they sent up great gouts of water,
smashed through oak planking, and turned living men into bone and pulp and gristle. All across the river
the first line was engaged. Grappling hooks were flung out, iron rams crashed through wooden hulls,
boarders swarmed, flights of arrows whispered through each other in the drifting smoke, and men died . .
. but so far, none of his.
Black Betha swept upriver, the sound of her oarmaster's drum thundering in her captain's head as he
looked for a likely victim for her ram. The beleaguered Queen Alysanne was trapped between two
Lannister warships, the three made fast by hooks and lines.
"Ramming speed!" Davos shouted.
The drumbeats blurred into a long fevered hammering, and Black Betha flew, the water turning white as
milk as it parted for her prow. Allard had seen the same chance; Lady Marya ran beside them. The first
line had been transformed into a confusion of separate struggles. The three tangled ships loomed ahead,


turning, their decks a red chaos as men hacked at each other with sword and axe. A little more, Davos
Seaworth beseeched the Warrior, bring her around a little more, show me her broadside.
The Warrior must have been listening. Black Betha and Lady Marya slammed into the side of Lady's
Shame within an instant of each other, ramming her fore and aft with such force that men were thrown off
the deck of Lady of Silk three boats away. Davos almost bit his tongue off when his teeth jarred
together. He spat out blood. Next time close your
mouth, you fool. Forty years at sea, and yet this was the first time he'd rammed another ship. His archers
were loosing arrows at will.
"Back water," he commanded. When Black Betha reversed her oars, the river rushed into the splintered
hole she left, and Lady's Shame fell to pieces before his eyes, spilling dozens of men into the river. Some
of the living swam; some of the dead floated; the ones in heavy mail and plate sank to the bottom, the
quick and the dead alike. The pleas of drowning men echoed in his ears.
A flash of green caught his eye, ahead and off to port, and a nest of writhing emerald serpents rose
burning and hissing from the stern of Queen Alysanne. An instant later Davos heard the dread cry of
"Wildfire!"
He grimaced. Burning pitch was one thing, wildfire quite another. Evil stuff, and well-nigh unquenchable.
Smother it under a cloak and the cloak took fire; slap at a fleck of it with your palm and your hand was
aflame. "Piss on wildfire and your cock burns off," old seamen liked to say. Still, Ser Imry had warned
them to expect a taste of the alchemists' vile substance. Fortunately, there were few true pyromancers
left. They will soon run out, Ser Imry had assured them.
Davos reeled off commands; one bank of oars pushed off while the other backed water, and the galley
came about. Lady Marya had won clear too, and a good thing; the fire was spreading over Queen
Alysanne and her foes faster than he would have believed possible. Men wreathed in green flame leapt
into the water, shrieking like nothing human. on the walls of King's Landing, spitfires were belching death,
and the great trebuchets behind the Mud Gate were throwing boulders. One the size of an ox crashed
down between Black Betha and Wraith, rocking both ships and soaking every man on deck. Another,
not much smaller, found Bold Laughter. The Velaryon galley exploded like a child's toy dropped from a
tower, spraying splinters as long as a man's arm.
Through black smoke and swirling green fire, Davos glimpsed a swarm of small boats bearing
downriver: a confusion of ferries and wherries, barges, skiffs, rowboats, and hulks that looked too rotten
to float. It stank of desperation; such driftwood could not turn the tide of a fight, only get in the way. The
lines of battle were hopelessly ensnarled, he saw. Off to port, Lord Steffon, Ragged fenna, and Swift
Sword had broken through and were sweeping upriver. The starboard wing was heavily engaged,
however, and the center had shattered under the stones of those trebuchets, some captains turning
downstream, others veering to port, anything to escape that crushing rain. Fury had swung her aft
catapult to fire back at the city, but she lacked the range; the barrels of pitch were shattering under the
walls. Sceptre had lost most of her oars, and Faithful had been rammed and was starting to list. He took
Black Betha
between them, and struck a glancing blow at Queen Cersei's ornate carved-and-gilded pleasure barge,
laden with soldiers instead of sweetmeats now. The collision spilled a dozen of them into the river, where
Betha's archers picked them off as they tried to stay afloat.
Matthos's shout alerted him to the danger from port; one of the Lannister galleys was coming about to


ram. "Hard to starboard," Davos shouted. His men used their oars to push free of the barge, while others
turned the galley so her prow faced the onrushing White Hart. For a moment he feared he'd been too
slow, that he was about to be sunk, but the current helped swing Black Betha, and when the impact
came it was only a glancing blow, the two hulls scraping against each other, both ships snapping oars. A
jagged piece of wood flew past his head, sharp as any spear. Davos flinched. "Board her!" he shouted.
Grappling lines were flung. He drew his sword and led them over the rail himself.
The crew of the White Hart met them at the rail, but Black Betha's men-at-arms swept over them in a
screaming steel tide. Davos fought through the press, looking for the other captain, but the man was dead
before he reached him. As he stood over the body, someone caught him from behind with an axe, but his
helm turned the blow, and his skull was left ringing when it might have been split. Dazed, it was all he
could do to roll. His attacker charged screaming. Davos grasped his sword in both hands and drove it up
point first into the man's belly.
One of his crewmen pulled him back to his feet. "Captain ser, the Hart is ours." It was true, Davos saw.
Most of the enemy were dead, dying, or yielded. He took off his helm, wiped blood from his face, and
made his way back to his own ship, trodding carefully on boards slimy with men's guts. Matthos lent him
a hand to help him back over the rail.
For those few instants, Black Betha and White Hart were the calm eye in the midst of the storm. Queen
Alysanne and Lady of Silk, still locked together, were a ranging green inferno, drifting downriver and
dragging pieces of Lady's Shame. One of the Myrish galleys had slammed into them and was now afire
as well. Cat was taking on men from the fastsinking Courageous. The captain of Dragonsbane had driven
her between two quays, ripping out her bottom; her crew poured ashore with the archers and
men-at-arms to join the assault on the walls. Red Raven, rammed, was slowly listing. Stag of the Sea was
fighting fires and boarders both, but the fiery heart had been raised over Joffrey's Loyal Man. Fury, her
proud bow smashed in by a boulder, was engaged with Godsgrace. He saw Lord Velaryon's Pride of
Driftmark crash between two Lannister river runners, overturning one and lighting the other up with fire
arrows. On the south bank, knights were leading their mounts aboard the cogs, and some of the smaller
galleys were already making their way across, laden with men-at-arms. They had to thread cautiously
between sinking ships and patches of drifting wildfire. The whole of King Stannis's fleet was in the river
now, save for Salladhor Saan's Lyseni. Soon enough they would control the Blackwater. Ser Imry will
have his victory, Davos thought, and Stannis will bring his host across, but gods be good, the cost of this
. . .
"Captain ser!" Matthos touched his shoulder.
It was Swordfish, her two banks of oars lifting and falling. She had never brought down her sails, and
some burning pitch had caught in her rigging. The flames spread as Davos watched, creeping out over
ropes and sails until she trailed a head of yellow flame. Her ungainly iron ram, fashioned after the likeness
of the fish from which she took her name, parted the surface of the river before her. Directly ahead,
drifting toward her and swinging around to present a tempting plump target, was one of the Lannister
hulks, floating low in the water. Slow green blood was leaking out between her boards.
When he saw that, Davos Seaworth's heart stopped beating.
"No, " he said. "No, NOOOOOOOO!" Above the roar and crash of battle, no one heard him but
Matthos. Certainly the captain of the Swordfish did not, intent as he was on finally spearing something
with his ungainly fat sword. The Swordfish went to battle speed. Davos lifted his maimed hand to clutch
at the leather pouch that held his fingerbones.


With a grinding, splintering, tearing crash, Swordfish split the rotted hulk asunder. She burst like an
overripe fruit, but no fruit had ever screamed that shattering wooden scream. From inside her Davos saw
green gushing from a thousand broken jars, poison from the entrails of a dying beast, glistening, shining,
spreading across the surface of the river . . .
"Back water," he roared. "Away. Get us off her, back water, back water!" The grappling lines were cut,
and Davos felt the deck move under his feet as Black Betha pushed free of White Hart. Her oars slid
down into the water.
Then he heard a short sharp woof, as if someone had blown in his ear. Half a heartbeat later came the
roar. The deck vanished beneath him, and black water smashed him across the face, filling his nose and
mouth. He was choking, drowning. Unsure which way was up, Davos wrestled the river in blind panic
until suddenly he broke the surface. He spat out water, sucked in air, grabbed hold of the nearest chunk
of debris, and held on.
Swordfish and the hulk were gone, blackened bodies were floating downstream beside him, and choking
men clinging to bits of smoking wood. Fifty feet high, a swirling demon of green flame danced upon the
river. It had a dozen hands, in each a whip, and whatever they touched burst into fire. He saw Black
Betha burning, and White Hart and Loyal
Man to either side. Piety, Cat, Courageous, Sceptre, Red Raven, Harridan, Faithful, Fury, they had all
gone up, Kingslander and Godsgrace as well, the demon was eating his own. Lord Velaryon's shining
Pride of Driftmark was trying to turn, but the demon ran a lazy green finger across her silvery oars and
they flared up like so many tapers. For an instant she seemed to be stroking the river with two banks of
long bright torches.
The current had him in its teeth by then, spinning him around and around. He kicked to avoid a floating
patch of wildfire. My sons, Davos thought, but there was no way to look for them amidst the roaring
chaos. Another hulk heavy with wildfire went up behind him. The Blackwater itself seemed to boil in its
bed, and burning spars and burning men and pieces of broken ships filled the air.
I'm being swept out into the bay. It wouldn't be as bad there; he ought to be able to make shore, he was
a strong swimmer. Salladhor Saan's galleys would be out in the bay as well, Ser Imry had commanded
them to stand off . . .
And then the current turned him about again, and Davos saw what awaited him downstream.
The chain. Gods save us, they've raised the chain.
Where the river broadened out into Blackwater Bay, the boom stretched taut, a bare two or three feet
above the water. Already a dozen galleys had crashed into it, and the current was pushing others against
them. Almost all were aflame, and the rest soon would be. Davos could make out the striped hulls of
Salladhor Saan's ships beyond, but he knew he would never reach them. A wall of red-hot steel, blazing
wood, and swirling green flame stretched before him. The mouth of the Blackwater Rush had turned into
the mouth of hell.
CHAPTER 59


TYRION
Motionless as a gargoyle, Tyrion Lannister hunched on one knee atop a merlon. Beyond the Mud Gate
and the desolation that had once been the fishmarket and wharves, the river itself seemed to have taken
fire. Half of Stannis's fleet was ablaze, along with most of Joffrey's. The kiss of wildfire turned proud
ships into funeral pyres and men into living torches. The air was full of smoke and arrows and screams.
Downstream, commoners and highborn captains alike could see the hot green death swirling toward
their rafts and carracks and ferries, borne on the current of the Blackwater. The long white oars of the
Myrish galleys flashed like the legs of maddened centipedes as they fought to come about, but it was no
good. The centipedes had no place to run.
A dozen great fires raged under the city walls, where casks of burning pitch had exploded, but the
wildfire reduced them to no more than candles in a burning house, their orange and scarlet pennons
fluttering insignificantly against the jade holocaust. The low clouds caught the color of the burning river
and roofed the sky in shades of shifting green, eerily beautiful. A terrible beauty. Like dragonfire. Tyrion
wondered if Aegon the Conqueror had felt like this as he flew above his Field of Fire.
The furnace wind lifted his crimson cloak and beat at his bare face, yet he could not turn away. He was
dimly aware of the gold cloaks cheering from the hoardings. He had no voice to join them. It was a half
victory. It will not be enough.
He saw another of the hulks he'd stuffed full of King Aerys's fickle fruits engulfed by the hungry flames.
A fountain of burning jade rose from the river the blast so bright he had to shield his eyes. Plumes of fire
thirty and forty feet high danced upon the waters, crackling and hissing. For a few moments they washed
out the screams. There were hundreds in the water, drowning or burning or doing a little of both.
Do you hear them shrieking, Stannis? Do you see them burning? This is your work as much as mine.
Somewhere in that seething mass of men south of the Blackwater, Stannis was watching too, Tyrion
knew. He'd never had his brother Robert's thirst for battle. He would command from the rear, from the
reserve, much as Lord Tywin Lannister was wont to do. Like as not, he was sitting a warhorse right now,
clad in bright armor, his crown upon his head. A crown of red gold, Varys says, its points fashioned in
the shapes of flames.
"My ships." Joffrey's voice cracked as he shouted up from the wallwalk, where he huddled with his
guards behind the ramparts. The golden circlet of kingship adorned his battle helm. "My Kingslander's
burning, Queen Cersei, Loyal Man. Look, that's Seaflower, there." He pointed with his new sword, out
to where the green flames were licking at Seaflower's golden hull and creeping up her oars. Her captain
had turned her upriver, but not quickly enough to evade the wildfire.
She was doomed, Tyrion knew. There was no other way. If we had not come forth to meet them,
Stannis would have sensed the trap. An arrow could be aimed, and a spear, even the stone from a
catapult, but wildfire had a will of its own. Once loosed, it was beyond the control of mere men. "It could
not be helped," he told his nephew. "Our fleet was doomed in any case."
Even from atop the merlon-he had been too short to see over the ramparts, so he'd had them boost him
up-the flames and smoke and chaos of battle made it impossible for Tyrion to see what was happening
downriver under the castle, but he had seen it a thousand times in his mind's eye. Bronn would have
whipped the oxen into motion the moment Stannis's flagship passed under the Red Keep; the chain was


ponderous heavy, and the great winches turned but slowly, creaking and rumbling. The whole of the
usurper's fleet would have passed by the time the first glimmer of metal could be seen beneath the water.
The links would emerge dripping wet, some glistening with mud, link by link by link, until the whole great
chain stretched taut. King Stannis had rowed his fleet up the Blackwater, but he would not row out again.
Even so, some were getting away. A river's current was a tricky thing, and the wildfire was not
spreading as evenly as he had hoped. The main channel was all aflame, but a good many of the Myrmen
had made for the south bank and looked to escape unscathed, and at least eight ships
had landed under the city walls. Landed or wrecked, but it comes to the same thing, they've put men
ashore. Worse, a good part of the south wing of the enemy's first two battle lines had been well upstream
of the inferno when the hulks went up. Stannis would be left with thirty or forty galleys, at a guess; more
than enough to bring his whole host across, once they had regained their courage.
That might take a bit of time; even the bravest would be dismayed after watching a thousand or so of his
fellows consumed by wildfire. Hallyne said that sometimes the substance burned so hot that flesh melted
like tallow. Yet even so . . .
Tyrion had no illusions where his own men were concerned. If the battle looks to be going sour they'll
break, and they'll break bad, Jacelyn Bywater had warned him, so the only way to win was to make
certain the battle stayed sweet, start to finish.
He could see dark shapes moving through the charred ruins of the riverfront wharfs. Time for another
sortie, he thought. Men were never so vulnerable as when they first staggered ashore. He must not give
the foe time to form up on the north bank.
He scrambled down off the merlon. "Tell Lord Jacelyn we've got enemy on the riverfront," he said to
one of the runners Bywater had assigned him. To another he said, "Bring my compliments to Ser Arneld
and ask him to swing the Whores thirty degrees west." The angle would allow them to throw farther, if
not as far out into the water.
"Mother promised I could have the Whores," Joffrey said. Tyrion was annoyed to see that the king had
lifted the visor of his helm again. Doubtless the boy was cooking inside all that heavy steel . . . but the last
thing he needed was some stray arrow punching through his nephew's eye.
He clanged the visor shut. "Keep that closed, Your Grace; your sweet person is precious to us all." And
you don't want to spoil that pretty face, either. "The Whores are yours." It was as good a time as any;
flinging more firepots down onto burning ships seemed pointless. Joff had the Antler Men trussed up
naked in the square below, antlers nailed to their heads. When they'd been brought before the Iron
Throne for justice, he had promised to send them to Stannis. A man was not as heavy as a boulder or a
cask of burning pitch, and could be thrown a deal farther. Some of the gold cloaks had been wagering on
whether the traitors would fly all the way across the Blackwater. "Be quick about it, Your Grace," he told
Joffrey. "We'll want the trebuchets throwing stones again soon enough. Even wildfire does not burn
forever."
Joffrey hurried off happy, escorted by Ser Meryn, but Tyrion caught Ser Osmund by the wrist before he
could follow. "Whatever happens, keep him safe and keep him there, is that understood?"
"As you command." Ser Osmund smiled amiably.
Tyrion had warned Trant and Kettleblack what would happen to them should any harm come to the


king. And Joffrey had a dozen veteran gold cloaks waiting at the foot of the steps. I'm protecting your
wretched bastard as well as I can, Cersei, he thought bitterly. See you do the same for Alayaya.
No sooner was Joff off than a runner came panting up the steps. Iimy lord, hurry!" He threw himself to
one knee. "They've landed men on the tourney grounds, hundreds! They're bringing a ram up to the
King's Gate."
T~rion cursed and made for the steps with a rolling waddle. Podrick Payne waited below with their
horses. They galloped off down River Row, Pod and Ser Mandon Moore coming hard behind him. The
shuttered houses were steeped in green shadow, but there was no traffic to get in their way; Tyrion had
commanded that the street be kept clear, so the defenders could move quickly from one gate to the next.
Even so, by the time they reached the King's Gate, he could hear a booming crash of wood on wood that
told him the battering ram had been brought into play. The groaning of the great hinges sounded like the
moans of a dying giant. The gatchouse square was littered with the wounded, but he saw lines of horses
as well, not all of them hurt, and sellswords and gold cloaks enough to form a strong column. "Form up,"
he shouted as he leapt to the ground. The gate moved under the impact of another blow. "Who
commands here? You're going out."
"No." A shadow detached itself from the shadow of the wall, to become a tall man in dark grey armor.
Sandor Clegane wrenched off his helm with both hands and let it fall to the ground. The steel was
scorched and dented, the left ear of the snarling hound sheared off. A gash above one eye had sent a
wash of blood down across the Hound's old burn scars, masking half his face.
"Yes." Tyrion faced him.
Clegane's breath came ragged. "Bugger that. And you."
A sellsword stepped up beside him. "We been out. Three times. Half our men are killed or hurt. Wildfire
bursting all around us, horses screaming like men and men like horses-"
"Did you think we hired you to fight in a tourney? Shall I bring you a nice iced milk and a bowl of
raspberries? No? Then get on your fucking horse. You too, dog."
The blood on Clegane's face glistened red, but his eyes showed white. He drew his longsword.
He is afraid, Tyrion realized, shocked. The Hound is frightened. He tried to explain their need. "They've
taken a ram to the gate, you can hear them, we need to disperse them-"
"Open the gates. When they rush inside, surround them and kill them." The Hound thrust the point of his
longsword into the ground and leaned upon the pommel, swaying. "I've lost half my men. Horse as well.
I'm not taking more into that fire."
Ser Mandon Moore moved to Tyrion's side, immaculate in his enameled white plate. "The King's Hand
commands you."
"Bugger the King's Hand." Where the Hound's face was not sticky with blood, it was pale as milk.
"Someone bring me a drink." A gold cloak officer handed him a cup. Clegane took a swallow, spit it out,
flung the cup away. "Water? Fuck your water. Bring me wine."
He is dead on his feet. Tyrion could see it now. The wound, the fire . . . he's done, I need to find
someone else, but who? Ser Mandon? He looked at the men and knew it would not do. Clegane's fear


had shaken them. Without a leader, they would refuse as well, and Ser Mandon . . . a dangerous man,
Jaime said, yes, but not a man other men would follow.
In the distance Tyrion heard another great crash. Above the walls, the darkening sky was awash with
sheets of green and orange light. How long could the gate hold?
This is madness, he thought, but sooner madness than defeat. Defeat is death and shame. "Very well, I'll
lead the sortie."
If he thought that would shame the Hound back to valor, he was wrong. Clegane only laughed. "You?"
Tyrion could see the disbelief on their faces. "Me. Ser Mandon, you'll bear the king's banner. Pod, my
helm." The boy ran to obey. The Hound leaned on that notched and blood-streaked sword and looked
at him with those wide white eyes. Ser Mandon helped Tyrion mount up again. "Form up!" he shouted.
His big red stallion wore crinet and charnfron. Crimson silk draped his hindquarters, over a coat of mail.
The high saddle was gilded. Podrik Payne handed up helm and shield, heavy oak emblazoned with a
golden hand on red, surrounded by small golden lions. He walked his horse in a circle, looking at the little
force of men. Only a handful had responded to his command, no more than twenty. They sat their horses
with eyes as white as the Hound's. He looked contemptuously at the others, the knights and sellswords
who had ridden with Clegane. "They say I'm half a man," he said. "What does that make the lot of you?"
That shamed them well enough. A knight mounted, helmetless, and rode to join the others. A pair of
sellswords followed. Then more. The King's Gate shuddered again. In a few moments the size of Tyrion's
command had doubled. He had them trapped. If I fight, they must do the same, or they are less than
dwarfs.
"You won't hear me shout out Joffrey's name," he told them. "You
won't hear me yell for Casterly Rock either. This is your city Stannis means to sack, and that's your gate
he's bringing down. So come with me and kill the son of a bitch!" Tyrion unsheathed his axe, wheeled the
stallion around, and trotted toward the sally port. He thought they were following, but never dared to
look.
CHAPTER 60
SANSA
The torches shimmered brightly against the hammered metal of the wall sconces, filling the Queen's
Ballroom with silvery light. Yet there was still darkness in that hall. Sansa could see it in the pale eyes of
Ser Ilyn Payne, who stood by the back door still as stone, taking neither food nor wine. She could hear it
in Lord Gyles's racking cough, and the whispered voice of Osney Kettleblack when he slipped in to bring
Cersei the tidings.
Sansa was finishing her broth when he came the first time, entering through the back. She glimpsed him
talking to his brother Osfryd. Then he climbed the dais and knelt beside the high seat, smelling of horse,
four long thin scratches on his cheek crusted with scabs, his hair falling down past his collar and into his


eyes. For all his whispering, Sansa could not help but hear. "The fleets are locked in battle. Some archers
got ashore, but the Hound's cut them to pieces, Y'Grace. Your brother's raising his chain, I heard the
signal. Some drunkards down to Flea Bottom are smashing doors and climbing through windows. Lord
Bywater's sent the gold cloaks to deal with them. Baelor's Sept is jammed full, everyone praying."
"And my son?"
"The king went to Baelor's to get the High Septon's blessing. Now he's walking the walls with the Hand,
telling the men to be brave, lifting their spirits as it were."
Cersei beckoned to her page for another cup of wine, a golden vintage
from the Arbor, fruity and rich. The queen was drinking heavily, but the wine only seemed to make her
more beautiful; her cheeks were flushed, and her eyes had a bright, feverish heat to them as she looked
down over the hall. Eyes of wildfire, Sansa thought.
Musicians played. jugglers juggled. Moon Boy lurched about the hall on stilts making mock of everyone,
while Ser Dontos chased serving girls on his broomstick horse. The guests laughed, but it was a joyless
laughter, the sort of laughter that can turn into sobbing in half a heartbeat. Their bodies are here, but their
thoughts are on the city walls, and their hearts as well.
After the broth came a salad of apples, nuts, and raisins. At any other time, it might have made a tasty
dish, but tonight all the food was flavored with fear. Sansa was not the only one in the hall without an
appetite. Lord Gyles was coughing more than he was eating, Lollys Stokeworth sat hunched and
shivering, and the young bride of one of Ser Lancel's knights began to weep uncontrollably. The queen
commanded Maester Frenken to put her to bed with a cup of dreamwine. "Tears," she said scornfully to
Sansa as the woman was led from the hall. "The woman's weapon, my lady mother used to call them.
The man's weapon is a sword. And that tells us all you need to know, doesn't it?"
"Men must be very brave, though," said Sansa. "To ride out and face swords and axes, everyone trying
to kill you . . ."
"Jaime told me once that he only feels truly alive in battle and in bed." She lifted her cup and took a long
swallow. Her salad was untouched. "I would sooner face any number of swords than sit helpless like this,
pretending to enjoy the company of this flock of frightened hens."
"You asked them here, Your Grace."
"Certain things are expected of a queen. They will be expected of you should you ever wed Joffrey. Best
learn." The queen studied the wives, daughters, and mothers who filled the benches. "Of themselves the
hens are nothing, but their cocks are important for one reason or another, and some may survive this
battle. So it behooves me to give their women my protection. if my wretched dwarf of a brother should
somehow manage to prevail, they will return to their husbands and fathers full of tales about how brave I
was, how my courage inspired them and lifted their spirits, how I never doubted our victory even for a
moment."
"And if the castle should fall?"
"You'd like that, wouldn't you?" Cersei did not wait for a denial. "If I'm not betrayed by my own guards,
I may be able to hold here for a time. Then I can go to the walls and offer to yield to Lord Stannis in
person. That will spare us the worst. But if Maegor's Holdfast should fall before Stannis can come up,


why then, most of my guests are in for a bit of rape,
I'd say. And you should never rule out mutilation, torture, and murder at times like these."
Sansa was horrified. "These are women, unarmed, and gently born."
"Their birth protects them," Cersei admitted, "though not as much as you'd think. Each one's worth a
good ransom, but after the madness of battle, soldiers often seem to want flesh more than coin. Even so,
a golden shield is better than none. Out in the streets, the women won't be treated near as tenderly. Nor
will our servants. Pretty things like that serving wench of Lady Tanda's could be in for a lively night, but
don't imagine the old and the infirm and the ugly will be spared. Enough drink will make blind
washerwomen and reeking pig girls seem as comely as you, sweetling.
"Me?" "Try not to sound so like a mouse, Sansa. You're a woman now, remember? And betrothed to
my firstborn." The queen sipped at her wine. "Were it anyone else outside the gates, I might hope to
beguile him. But this is Stannis Baratheon. I'd have a better chance of seducing his horse." She noticed
the look on Sansa's face, and laughed. "Have I shocked you, my lady?" She leaned close. "You little fool.
Tears are not a woman's only weapon. You've got another one between your legs, and you'd best learn
to use it. You'll find men use their swords freely enough. Both kinds of swords."
Sansa was spared the need to reply when two Kettleblacks reentered the hall. Ser Osmund and his
brothers had become great favorites about the castle; they were always ready with a smile and a jest, and
got on with grooms and huntsmen as well as they did with knights and squires. With the serving wenches
they got on best of all, it was gossiped. Of late Ser Osmund had taken Sandor Clegane's place by
Joffrey's side, and Sansa had heard the women at the washing well saying he was as strong as the
Hound, only younger and faster. If that was so, she wondered why she had never once heard of these
Kettleblacks before Ser Osmund was named to the Kingsguard.
Osney was all smiles as he knelt beside the queen. "The hulks have gone up, Y'Grace. The whole
Blackwater's awash with wildfire. A hundred ships burning, maybe more."
"And my son?"
"He's at the Mud Gate with the Hand and the Kingsguard, Y'Grace. He spoke to the archers on the
hoardings before, and gave them a few tips on handling a crossbow, he did. All agree, he's a right brave
boy."
"He'd best remain a right live boy." Cersei turned to his brother Osfryd, who was taller, sterner, and
wore a drooping black mustache. "Yes?"
Osfryd had donned a steel halfhelm over his long black hair, and the
look on his face was grim, "Y'Grace," he said quietly, "the boys caught a groom and two maidservants
trying to sneak out a postern with three of the king's horses."
"The night's first traitors," the queen said, "but not the last, I fear. Have Ser Ilyn see to them, and put
their heads on pikes outside the stables as a warning." As they left, she turned to Sansa. "Another lesson
you should learn, if you hope to sit beside my son. Be gentle on a night like this and you'll have treasons
popping up all about you like mushrooms after a hard rain. The only way to keep your people loyal is to
make certain they fear you more than they do the enemy."


"I will remember, Your Grace," said Sansa, though she had always heard that love was a surer route to
the people's loyalty than fear. If I am ever a queen, I'll make them love me.
Crabclaw pies followed the salad. Then came mutton roasted with leeks and carrots, served in trenchers
of hollowed bread. Lollys ate too fast, got sick, and retched all over herself and her sister. Lord Gyles
coughed, drank, coughed, drank, and passed out. The queen gazed down in disgust to where he
sprawled with his face in his trencher and his hand in a puddle of wine. "The gods must have been mad to
waste manhood on the likes of him, and I must have been mad to demand his release."
Osfryd Kettleblack returned, crimson cloak swirling. "There's folks gathering in the square, Y'Grace,
asking to take refuge in the castle. Not a mob, rich merchants and the like."
"Command them to return to their homes," the queen said. "If they won't go, have our crossbowmen kill
a few. No sorties; I won't have the gates opened for any reason."
"As you command." He bowed and moved off.
The queen's face was hard and angry. "Would that I could take a sword to their necks myself." Her
voice was starting to slur. "When we were little, Jaime and I were so much alike that even our lord father
could not tell us apart. Sometimes as a lark we would dress in each other's clothes and spend a whole
day each as the other. Yet even so, when Jaime was given his first sword, there was none for me. 'What
do I get?' I remember asking. We were so much alike, I could never understand why they treated us so
differently. Jaime learned to fight with sword and lance and mace, while I was taught to smile and sing
and please. He was heir to Casterly Rock, while I was to be sold to some stranger like a horse, to be
ridden whenever my new owner liked, beaten whenever he liked, and cast aside in time for a younger
filly. Jaime's lot was to be glory and power, while mine was birth and moonblood."
"But you were queen of all the Seven Kingdoms," Sansa said.
"When it comes to swords, a queen is only a woman after all."
Cersei's wine cup was empty. The page moved to fill it again, but she turned it over and shook her head.
"No more. I must keep a clear head."
The last course was goat cheese served with baked apples. The scent of cinnamon filled the hall as
Osney Kettleblack slipped in to kneel once more between them. "Y'Grace," he murmured. "Stannis has
landed men on the tourney grounds, and there's more coming across. The Mud Gate's under attack, and
they've brought a ram to the King's Gate. The Imp's gone out to drive them off."
"That will fill them with fear," the queen said dryly. "He hasn't taken Joff, I hope."
"No, Y'Grace, the king's with my brother at the Whores, flinging Antler Men into the river."
"With the Mud Gate under assault? Folly. Tell Ser Osmund I want him out of there at once, it's too
dangerous. Fetch him back to the castle."
"The Imp said-"
"It's what I said that ought concern you." Cersei's eyes narrowed. "Your brother will do as he's told, or
I'll see to it that he leads the next sortie himself, and you'll go with him."


After the meal had been cleared away, many of the guests asked leave to go to the sept. Cersei
graciously granted their request. Lady Tanda and her daughters were among those who fled. For those
who remained, a singer was brought forth to fill the hall with the sweet music of the high harp. He sang of
Jonquil and Florian, of Prince Aemon the Dragonknight and his love for his brother's queen, of Nymeria's
ten thousand ships. They were beautiful songs, but terribly sad. Several of the women began to weep,
and Sansa felt her own eyes growing moist.
"Very good, dear." The queen leaned close. "You want to practice those tears. You'll need them for
King Stannis."
Sansa shifted nervously. "Your Grace?"
"Oh, spare me your hollow courtesies. Matters must have reached a desperate strait out there if they
need a dwarf to lead them, so you might as well take off your mask. I know all about your little treasons
in the godswood."
"The godswood?" Don't look at Ser Dontos, don't, don't, Sansa told herself. She doesn't know, no one
knows, Dontos promised me, my Florian would never fail me. "I've done no treasons. I only visit the
godswood to pray."
"For Stannis. Or your brother, it's all the same. Why else seek your father's gods? You're praying for
our defeat. What would you call that, if not treason?"
"I pray for Joffrey," she insisted nervously.
"Why, because he treats you so sweetly?" The queen took a flagon of
sweet plum wine from a passing serving girl and filled Sansa's cup. "Drink," she commanded coldly.
"Perhaps it will give you the courage to deal with truth for a change."
Sansa lifted the cup to her lips and took a sip. The wine was cloyingly sweet, but very strong.
"You can do better than that," Cersei said. "Drain the cup, Sansa. Your queen commands you."
it almost gagged her, but Sansa emptied the cup, gulping down the thick sweet wine until her head was
swimming.
"More?" Cersei asked.
"No. Please."
The queen looked displeased. "When you asked about Ser Ilyn earlier, I lied to you. Would you like to
hear the truth, Sansa? Would you like to know why he's really here?"
She did not dare answer, but it did not matter. The queen raised a hand and beckoned, never waiting for
a reply. Sansa had not even seen Ser Ilyn return to the hall, but suddenly there he was, striding from the
shadows behind the dais as silent as a cat. He carried Ice unsheathed. Her father had always cleaned the
blade in the godswood after he took a man's head, Sansa recalled, but Ser Ilyn was not so fastidious.
There was blood drying on the rippling steel, the red already fading to brown. "Tell Lady Sansa why I
keep you by us," said Cersei.


Ser Ilyn opened his mouth and emitted a choking rattle. His poxscarred face had no expression.
"He's here for us, he says," the queen said. "Stannis may take the city and he may take the throne, but I
will not suffer him to judge me. I do not mean for him to have us alive."
"us?"
"You heard me. So perhaps you had best pray again, Sansa, and for a different outcome. The Starks
will have no joy from the fall of House Lannister, I promise you." She reached out and touched Sansa's
hair, brushing it lightly away from her neck.
CHAPTER 61
TYRION
The slot in his helm limited Tyrion's vision to what was before him, but when he turned his head he saw
three galleys beached on the tourney grounds, and a fourth, larger than the others, standing well out into
the river, firing barrels of burning pitch from a catapult.
"Wedge," Tyrion commanded as his men streamed out of the sally port. They formed up in spearhead,
with him at the point. Ser Mandon Moore took the place to his right, flames shimmering against the white
enamel of his armor, his dead eyes shining passionlessly through his helm. He rode a coal-black horse
barded all in white, with the pure white shield of the Kingsguard strapped to his arm. On the left, Tyrion
was surprised to see Podrick Payne, a sword in his hand. "You're too young," he said at once. "Go
back."
"I'm your squire, my lord."
Tyrion could spare no time for argument. "With me, then. Stay close." He kicked his horse into motion.
They rode knee to knee, following the line of the looming walls. Joffrey's standard streamed crimson and
gold from Ser Mandon's staff, stag and lion dancing hoof to paw. They went from a walk to a trot,
wheeling wide around the base of the tower. Arrows darted from the city walls while stones spun and
tumbled overhead, crashing down blindly onto earth and water, steel and flesh. Ahead loomed the King's
Gate and a surging mob of soldiers wrestling with a huge ram, a shaft of black oak
with an iron head. Archers off the ships surrounded them, loosing their shafts at whatever defenders
showed themselves on the gatehouse walls. "Lances," Tyrion commanded. He sped to a canter.
The ground was sodden and slippery, equal parts mud and blood. His stallion stumbled over a corpse,
his hooves sliding and churning the earth, and for an instant Tyrion feared his charge would end with him
tumbling from the saddle before he even reached the foe, but somehow he and his horse both managed
to keep their balance. Beneath the gate men were turning, hurriedly trying to brace for the shock. Tyrion
lifted his axe and shouted, "King's Landing!" Other voices took up the cry, and now the arrowhead flew,
a long scream of steel and silk, pounding hooves and sharp blades kissed by fire.
Ser Mandon dropped the point of his lance at the last possible instant, and drove Joffrey's banner


through the chest of a man in a studded jerkin, lifting him full off his feet before the shaft snapped. Ahead
of Tyrion was a knight whose surcoat showed a fox peering through a ring of flowers. Florent was his
first thought, but helmless ran a close second. He smashed the man in the face with all the weight of axe
and arm and charging horse, taking off half his head. The shock of impact numbed his shoulder. Shagga
would laugh at me, he thought, riding on.
A spear thudded against his shield. Pod galloped beside him, slashing down at every foe they passed.
Dimly, he heard cheers from the men on the walls. The battering ram crashed down into the mud,
forgotten in an instant as its handlers fled or turned to fight. Tyrion rode down an archer, opened a
spearman from shoulder to armpit, glanced a blow off a swordfish-crested helm. At the ram his big red
reared but the black stallion leapt the obstacle smoothly and Ser Mandon flashed past him, death in
snow-white silk. His sword sheared off limbs, cracked heads, broke shields asunder-though few enough
of the enemy had made it across the river with shields intact.
Tyrion urged his mount over the ram. Their foes were fleeing. He moved his head right to left and back
again, but saw no sign of Podrick Payne. An arrow clattered against his cheek, missing his eye slit by an
inch. His jolt of fear almost unhorsed him. If I'm to sit here like a stump, I had as well paint a target on my
breastplate.
He spurred his horse back into motion, trotting over and around a scatter of corpses. Downriver, the
Blackwater was jammed with the hulks of burning galleys. Patches of wildfire still floated atop the water,
sending fiery green plumes swirling twenty feet into the air. They had dispersed the men on the battering
ram, but he could see fighting all along the riverfront. Ser Balon Swann's men, most like, or Lancel's,
trying to throw the enemy back into the water as they swarmed ashore off the burning ships. "We'll ride
for the Mud Gate," he commanded.
Ser Mandon shouted, "The Mud Gate!" And they were off again. "King's Landing!" his men cried
raggedly, and "Halfman! Halfman!" He wondered who had taught them that. Through the steel and
padding of his helm, he heard anguished screams, the hungry crackle of flame, the shuddering of
warhorns, and the brazen blast of trumpets. Fire was everywhere. Gods be good, no wonder the Hound
was frightened. It's the flames he fears . . .
A splintering crash rang across the Blackwater as a stone the size of a horse landed square amidships on
one of the galleys. Ours or theirs? Through the roiling smoke, he could not tell. His wedge was gone;
every man was his own battle now. I should have turned back, he thought, riding on.
The axe was heavy in his fist. A handful still followed him, the rest dead or fled. He had to wrestle his
stallion to keep his head to the east. The big destrier liked fire no more than Sandor Clegane had, but the
horse was easier to cow.
Men were crawling from the river, men burned and bleeding, coughing up water, staggering, most dying.
He led his troop among them, delivering quicker cleaner deaths to those strong enough to stand. The war
shrank to the size of his eye slit. Knights twice his size fled from him, or stood and died. They seemed
little things, and fearful. "Lannister!" he shouted, slaying. His arm was red to the elbow, glistening in the
light off the river. When his horse reared again, he shook his axe at the stars and heard them call out
"Halfman! Halftnan!" Tyrion felt drunk.
The battle fever. He had never thought to experience it himself, though Jaime had told him of it often
enough. How time seemed to blur and slow and even stop, how the past and the future vanished until
there was nothing but the instant, how fear fled, and thought fled, and even your body. "You don't feel
your wounds then, or the ache in your back from the weight of the armor, or the sweat running down into


your eyes. You stop feeling, you stop thinking, you stop being you, there is only the fight, the foe, this
man and then the next and the next and the next, and you know they are afraid and tired but you're not,
you're alive, and death is all around you but their swords move so slowly, you can dance through them
laughing." Battle fever. I am half a man and drunk with slaughter, let them kill me if they can!
They tried. Another spearman ran at him. Tyrion lopped off the head of his spear, then his hand, then his
arm, trotting around him in a circle. An archer, bowless, thrust at him with an arrow, holding it as if it
were a knife. The destrier kicked at the man's thigh to send him sprawling, and Tyrion barked laughter.
He rode past a banner planted in the mud, one of Stannis's fiery hearts, and chopped the staff in two with
a swing of his axe. A knight rose up from nowhere to hack at his shield with a twohanded
greatsword, again and again, until someone thrust a dagger under his arm. One of Tyrion's men,
perhaps. He never saw.
"I yield, ser," a different knight called out, farther down the river. "Yield. Ser knight, I yield to you. My
pledge, here, here." The man lay in a puddle of black water, offering up a lobstered gauntlet in token of
submission. Tyrion had to lean down to take it from him. As he did, a pot of wildfire burst overhead,
spraying green flame. In the sudden stab of light he saw that the puddle was not black but red. The
gauntlet still had the knight's hand in it. He flung it back. "Yield," the man sobbed hopelessly, helplessly.
Tyrion reeled away.
A man-at-arms grabbed the bridle of his horse and thrust at Tyrion's face with a dagger. He knocked
the blade aside and buried the axe in the nape of the man's neck. As he was wresting it free, a blaze of
white appeared at the edge of his vision. Tyrion turned, thinking to find Ser Mandon Moore beside him
again, but this was a different white knight. Ser Balon Swann wore the same armor, but his horse
trappings bore the battling black-and-white swans of his House. He's more a spotted knight than a white
one, Tyrion thought inanely. Every bit of Ser Balon was spattered with gore and smudged by smoke. He
raised his mace to point downriver. Bits of brain and bone clung to its head. "My lord, look."
Tyrion swung his horse about to peer down the Blackwater. The current still flowed black and strong
beneath, but the surface was a roil of blood and flame. The sky was red and orange and garish green.
"What?" he said. Then he saw.
Steel-clad men-at-arms were clambering off a broken galley that had smashed into a pier. So many,
where are they coming from? Squinting into the smoke and glare, Tyrion followed them back out into the
river. Twenty galleys were jammed together out there, maybe more, it was hard to count. Their oars
were crossed, their hulls locked together with grappling lines, they were impaled on each other's rams,
tangled in webs of fallen rigging. One great hulk floated hull up between two smaller ships. Wrecks, but
packed so closely that it was possible to leap from one deck to the other and so cross the Blackwater.
Hundreds of Stannis Baratheon's boldest were doing just that. Tyrion saw one great fool of a knight
trying to ride across, urging a terrified horse over gunwales and oars, across tilting decks slick with blood
and crackling with green fire. We made them a bloody bridge, he thought in dismay. Parts of the bridge
were sinking and other parts were afire and the whole thing was creaking and shifting and like to burst
asunder at any moment, but that did not seem to stop them. "Those are brave men," he told Ser Balon in
admiration. "Let's go kill them."
He led them through the guttering fires and the soot and ash of the riverfront, pounding down a long
stone quay with his own men and Ser
Balon's behind him. Ser Mandon fell in with them, his shield a ragged ruin. Smoke and cinders swirled


through the air, and the foe broke before their charge, throwing themselves back into the water, knocking
over other men as they fought to climb up. The foot of the bridge was a halfsunken enemy galley with
Dragonsbane painted on her prow, her bottom ripped out by one of the sunken hulks Tyrion had placed
between the quays. A spearman wearing the red crab badge of House Celtigar drove the point of his
weapon up through the chest of Balon Swann's horse before he could dismount, spilling the knight from
the saddle. Tyrion hacked at the man's head as he flashed by, and by then it was too late to rein up. His
stallion leapt from the end of the quay and over a splintered gunwale, landing with a splash and a scream
in ankle-deep water. Tyrion's axe went spinning, followed by Tyrion himself, and the deck rose up to
give him a wet smack.
Madness followed. His horse had broken a leg and was screaming horribly. Somehow he managed to
draw his dagger, and slit the poor creature's throat. The blood gushed out in a scarlet fountain, drenching
his arms and chest. He found his feet again and lurched to the rail, and then he was fighting, staggering
and splashing across crooked decks awash with water. Men came at him. Some he killed, some he
wounded, and some went away, but always there were more. He lost his knife and gained a broken
spear, he could not have said how. He clutched it and stabbed, shrieking curses. Men ran from him and
he ran after them, clambering up over the rail to the next ship and then the next. His two white shadows
were always with him; Balon Swann and Mandon Moore, beautiful in their pale plate. Surrounded by a
circle of Velaryon spearmen, they fought back to back; they made battle as graceful as a dance.
His own killing was a clumsy thing. He stabbed one man in the kidney when his back was turned, and
grabbed another by the leg and upended him into the river. Arrows hissed past his head and clattered off
his armor; one lodged between shoulder and breastplate, but he never felt it. A naked man fell from the
sky and landed on the deck, body bursting like a melon dropped from a tower. His blood spattered
through the slit of Tyrion's helm. Stones began to plummet down, crashing through the decks and turning
men to pulp, until the whole bridge gave a shudder and twisted violently underfoot, knocking him
sideways.
Suddenly the river was pouring into his helm. He ripped it off and crawled along the listing deck until the
water was only neck deep. A groaning filled the air, like the death cries of some enormous beast, The
ship, he had time to think, the ship's about to tear loose. The broken galleys were ripping apart, the
bridge breaking apart. No sooner had he come to that realization than he heard a sudden crack, loud as
thunder, the deck lurched beneath him, and he slid back down into the water.
The list was so steep he had to climb back up, hauling himself along a snapped line inch by bloody inch.
Out of the corner of his eye, he saw the hulk they'd been tangled with drifting downstream with the
current, spinning slowly as men leapt over her side. Some wore Stannis's flaming heart, some Joffrey's
stag-and-lion, some other badges, but it seemed to make no matter. Fires were burning upstream and
down. On one side of him was a raging battle, a great confusion of bright banners waving above a sea of
struggling men, shield walls forming and breaking, mounted knights cutting through the press, dust and
mud and blood and smoke. on the other side, the Red Keep loomed high on its hill, spitting fire. They
were on the wrong sides, though. For a moment Tyrion thought he was going mad, that Stannis and the
castle had traded places. How could Stannis cross to the north bank? Belatedly he realized that the deck
was turning, and somehow he had gotten spun about, so castle and battle had changed sides. Battle,
what battle, if Stannis hasn't crossed who is he fighting? Tyrion was too tired to make sense of it. His
shoulder ached horribly, and when he reached up to rub it he saw the arrow, and remembered. I have to
get off this ship. Downstream was nothing but a wall of fire, and if the wreck broke loose the current
would take him right into it.
Someone was calling his name faintly through the din of battle. Tyrion tried to shout back. "Here! Here,
I'm here, help me!" His voice sounded so thin he could scarcely hear himself. He pulled himself up the


slanting deck, and grabbed for the rail. The hull slammed into the next galley over and rebounded so
violently he was almost knocked into the water. Where had all his strength gone? It was all he could do
to hang on.
"MY LORD! TAKE MY HAND! MY LORD TYRION!"
There on the deck of the next ship, across a widening gulf of black water, stood Ser Mandon Moore, a
hand extended. Yellow and green fire shone against the white of his armor, and his lobstered gauntlet was
sticky with blood, but Tyrion reached for it all the same, wishing his arms were longer. it was only at the
very last, as their fingers brushed across the gap, that something niggled at him . . . Ser Mandon was
holding out his left hand, why . . .
Was that why he reeled backward, or did he see the sword after all? He would never know. The point
slashed just beneath his eyes, and he felt its cold hard touch and then a blaze of pain. His head spun
around as if he'd been slapped. The shock of the cold water was a second slap more jolting than the first.
He flailed for something to grab on to, knowing that once he went down he was not like to come back
up. Somehow his hand found the splintered end of a broken oar. Clutching it tight as a desperate lover,
he shinnied up foot by foot. His eyes were full of water, his mouth was full of blood, and his head
throbbed horribly. Gods give
me strength to reach the deck . . . There was nothing else, only the oar, the water, the deck.
Finally he rolled over the side and lay breathless and exhausted, flat on his back. Balls of green and
orange flame crackled overhead, leaving streaks between the stars. He had a moment to think how pretty
it was before Ser Mandon blocked out the view. The knight was a white steel shadow, his eyes shining
darkly behind his helm. Tyrion had no more strength than a rag doll. Ser Mandon put the point of his
sword to the hollow of his throat and curled both hands around the hilt.
And suddenly he lurched to the left, staggering into the rail. Wood split, and Ser Mandon Moore
vanished with a shout and a splash. An instant later, the hulls came slamming together again, so hard the
deck seemed to jump. Then someone was kneeling over him. "Jaime?" he croaked, almost choking on
the blood that filled his mouth. Who else would save him, if not his brother?
"Be still, my lord, you're hurt bad." A boy's voice, that makes no sense, thought Tyrion. It sounded
almost like Pod.
SANSA
When Ser Lancel Lannister told the queen that the battle was lost, she turned her empty wine cup in her
hands and said, "Tell my brother, ser." Her voice was distant, as if the news were of no great interest to
her.
"Your brother's likely dead." Ser Lancel's surcoat was soaked with the blood seeping out under his arm.
When he had arrived in the hall, the sight of him had made some of the guests scream. "He was on the
bridge of boats when it broke apart, we think. Ser Mandon's likely gone as well, and no one can find the
Hound. Gods be damned, Cersei, why did you have them fetch Joffrey back to the castle? The gold
cloaks are throwing down their spears and running, hundreds of them. When they saw the king leaving,
they lost all heart. The whole Blackwater's awash with wrecks and fire and corpses, but we could have
held if-"
Osney Kettleblack pushed past him. "There's fighting on both sides of the river now, Y'Grace. It may be


that some of Stannis's lords are fighting each other, no one's sure, it's all confused over there. The
Hound's gone, no one knows where, and Ser Balon's fallen back inside the city. The riverside's theirs.
They're ramming at the King's Gate again, and Ser Lancel's right, your men are deserting the walls and
killing their own officers. There's mobs at the Iron Gate and the Gate of the Gods fighting to get out, and
Flea Bottom's one great drunken riot."
Gods be good, Sansa thought, it is happening, Joffrey's lost his head and so have L She looked for Ser
Ilyn, but the King's justice was not to
be seen. I can feel him, though. He's close, I'll not escape him, he'll have my head.
Strangely calm, the queen turned to his brother Osfryd. "Raise the drawbridge and bar the doors. No
one enters or leaves Maegor's without my leave."
"What about them women who went to pray?"
"They chose to leave my protection. Let them pray; perhaps the gods will defend them. Where's my
son?"
"The castle gatehouse. He wanted to command the crossbowmen. There's a mob howling outside, half
of them gold cloaks who came with him when we left the Mud Gate."
"Bring him inside Maegor's now"
"No!" Lancel was so angry he forgot to keep his voice down. Heads turned toward them as he shouted,
"We'll have the Mud Gate all over again. Let him stay where he is, he's the king-"
"He's my son." Cersei Lannister rose to her feet. "You claim to be a Lannister as well, cousin, prove it.
Osfryd, why are you standing there? Now means today."
Osfryd Kettleblack hurried from the hall, his brother with him. Many of the guests were rushing out as
well. Some of the women were weeping, some praying. Others simply remained at the tables and called
for more wine. "Cersei," Ser Lancel pleaded, "if we lose the castle, Joffrey will be killed in any case, you
know that. Let him stay, I'll keep him by me, I swear-"
"Get out of my way." Cersei slammed her open palm into his wound. Ser Lancel cried out in pain and
almost fainted as the queen swept from the room. She spared Sansa not so much as a glance. She's
forgotten me. Ser Ilyn will kill me and she won't even think about it.
"Oh, gods," an old woman wailed. "We're lost, the battle's lost, she's running." Several children were
crying. They can smell the fear. Sansa found herself alone on the dais. Should she stay here, or run after
the queen and plead for her life?
She never knew why she got to her feet, but she did. "Don't be afraid," she told them loudly. "The queen
has raised the drawbridge. This is the safest place in the city. There's thick walls, the moat, the spikes . .
."
"What's happened?" demanded a woman she knew slightly, the wife of a lesser lordling. "What did
Osney tell her? Is the king hurt, has the city fallen?"
"Tell us," someone else shouted. one woman asked about her father, another her son.


Sansa raised her hands for quiet. "Joffrey's come back to the castle. He's not hurt. They're still fighting,
that's all I know, they're fighting bravely. The queen will be back soon." The last was a lie, but she had to
soothe them. She noticed the fools standing under the galley. "Moon Boy, make us laugh."
Moon Boy did a cartwheel, and vaulted on top of a table. He grabbed up four wine cups and began to
juggle them. Every so often one of them would come down and smash him in the head. A few nervous
laughs echoed through the hall. Sansa went to Ser Lancel and knelt beside him. His wound was bleeding
afresh where the queen had struck him. "Madness," he gasped. "Gods, the Imp was right, was right . . ."
"Help him," Sansa commanded two of the serving men. One just looked at her and ran, flagon and all.
Other servants were leaving the hall as well, but she could not help that. Together, Sansa and the serving
man got the wounded knight back on his feet. "Take him to Maester Frenken." Lancel was one of them,
yet somehow she still could not bring herself to wish him dead. I am soft and weak and stupid, just as
Joffrey says. I should be killing him, not helping him.
The torches had begun to burn low, and one or two had flickered out. No one troubled to replace them.
Cersei did not return. Ser Dontos climbed the dais while all eyes were on the other fool. "Go back to
your bedchamber, sweet Jonquil," he whispered. "Lock yourself in, you'll be safer there. I'll come for you
when the battle's done."
Someone will come for me, Sansa thought, but will it be you, or will it be Ser Ilyn? For a mad moment
she thought of begging Dontos to defend her. He had been a knight too, trained with the sword and
sworn to defend the weak. No. He has not the courage, or the skill. I would only be killing him as well.
it took all the strength she had in her to walk slowly from the Queen's Ballroom when she wanted so
badly to run. When she reached the steps, she did run, up and around until she was breathless and dizzy.
One of the guards knocked into her on the stair. A jeweled wine cup and a pair of silver candlesticks
spilled out of the crimson cloak he'd wrapped them in and went clattering down the steps. He hurried
after them, paying Sansa no mind once he decided she was not going to try and take his loot.
Her bedchamber was black as pitch. Sansa barred the door and fumbled through the dark to the
window. When she ripped back the drapes, her breath caught in her throat.
The southern sky was aswirl with glowing, shifting colors, the reflections of the great fires that burned
below. Baleful green tides moved against the bellies of the clouds, and pools of orange light spread out
across the heavens. The reds and yellows of common flame warred against the emeralds and jades of
wildfire, each color flaring and then fading, birthing armies of short-lived shadows to die again an instant
later. Green dawns gave way to orange dusks in half a heartbeat. The air itself smelled burnt, the way a
soup kettle sometimes smelled if it was
left on the fire too long and all the soup boiled away. Embers drifted through the night air like swarms of
fireflies.
Sansa backed away from the window, retreating toward the safety of her bed. I'll go to sleep, she told
herself, and when I wake it will be a new day, and the sky will be blue again. The fighting will be done
and someone will tell me whether I'm to live or die. "Lady," she whimpered softly, wondering if she
would meet her wolf again when she was dead.
Then something stirred behind her, and a hand reached out of the dark and grabbed her wrist.


Sansa opened her mouth to scream, but another hand clamped down over her face, smothering her. His
fingers were rough and callused, and sticky with blood. "Little bird. I knew you'd come." The voice was
a drunken rasp.
Outside, a swirling lance of jade light spit at the stars, filling the room with green glare. She saw him for a
moment, all black and green, the blood on his face dark as tar, his eyes glowing like a dog's in the sudden
glare. Then the light faded and he was only a hulking darkness in a stained white cloak.
"If you scream I'll kill you. Believe that." He took his hand from her mouth. Her breath was coming
ragged. The Hound had a flagon of wine on her bedside table. He took a long pull. "Don't you want to
ask who's winning the battle, little bird?"
"Who?" she said, too frightened to defy him.
The Hound laughed. "I only know who's lost. Me."
He is drunker than I've ever seen him. He was sleeping in my bed. What does he want here? "What
have you lost?"
"All." The burnt half of his face was a mask of dried blood. "Bloody dwarf. Should have killed him.
Years ago."
"He's dead, they say."
"Dead? No. Bugger that. I don't want him dead." He cast the empty flagon aside. "I want him burned. If
the gods are good, they'll burn him, but I won't be here to see. I'm going."
"Going?" She tried to wriggle free, but his grasp was iron.
"The little bird repeats whatever she hears. Going, yes."
"Where will you go?"
"Away from here. Away from the fires. Go out the Iron Gate, I suppose. North somewhere, anywhere."
"You won't get out," Sansa said. "The queen's closed up Maegor's, and the city gates are shut as well."
"Not to me. I have the white cloak. And I have this." He patted the pommel of his sword. "The man who
tries to stop me is a dead man. Unless he's on fire." He laughed bitterly.
"Why did you come here?"
"You promised me a song, little bird. Have you forgotten?"
She didn't know what he meant. She couldn't sing for him now, here, with the sky aswirl with fire and
men dying in their hundreds and their thousands. "I can't," she said. "Let me go, you're scaring me."
"Everything scares you. Look at me. Look at me."
The blood masked the worst of his scars, but his eyes were white and wide and terrifying. The burnt


corner of his mouth twitched and twitched again. Sansa could smell him; a stink of sweat and sour wine
and stale vomit, and over it all the reek of blood, blood, blood.
"I could keep you safe," he rasped. "They're all afraid of me. No one would hurt you again, or I'd kill
them." He yanked her closer, and for a moment she thought he meant to kiss her. He was too strong to
fight. She closed her eyes, wanting it to be over, but nothing happened. "Still can't bear to look, can
you?" she heard him say. He gave her arm a hard wrench, pulling her around and shoving her down onto
the bed. "I'll have that song. Florian and Jonquil, you said." His dagger was out, poised at her throat.
"Sing, little bird. Sing for your little life."
Her throat was dry and tight with fear, and every song she had ever known had fled from her mind.
Please don't kill me, she wanted to scream, please don't. She could feel him twisting the point, pushing it
into her throat, and she almost closed her eyes again, but then she remembered. It was not the song of
Florian and Jonquil, but it was a song. Her voice sounded small and thin and tremulous in her ears.
Gentle Mother, font of mercy, save our sons from war, we pray, stay the swords and stay the arrows,
let them know a better day. Gentle Mother, strength of women, help our daughters through this fray,
soothe the wrath and tame the fury, teach us all a kinder way.
She had forgotten the other verses. When her voice trailed off, she feared he might kill her, but after a
moment the Hound took the blade from her throat, never speaking.
Some instinct made her lift her hand and cup his cheek with her fingers. The room was too dark for her
to see him, but she could feel the stickiness of the blood, and a wetness that was not blood. "Little bird,"
he said once more, his voice raw and harsh as steel on stone. Then he rose from the bed. Sansa heard
cloth ripping, followed by the softer sound of retreating footsteps.
When she crawled out of bed, long moments later, she was alone. She
found his cloak on the floor, twisted up tight, the white wool stained by blood and fire. The sky outside
was darker by then, with only a few pale green ghosts dancing against the stars. A chill wind was
blowing, banging the shutters. Sansa was cold. She shook out the torn cloak and huddled beneath it on
the floor, shivering.
How long she stayed there she could not have said, but after a time she heard a bell ringing, far off
across the city. The sound was a deepthroated bronze booming, coming faster with each knell. Sansa
was wondering what it might mean when a second bell joined in, and a third, their voices calling across
the hills and hollows, the alleys and towers, to every corner of King's Landing. She threw off the cloak
and went to her window.
The first faint hint of dawn was visible in the east, and the Red Keep's own bells were ringing now,
joining in the swelling river of sound that flowed from the seven crystal towers of the Great Sept of
Baelor. They had rung the bells when King Robert died, she remembered, but this was different, no slow
dolorous death knell but a joyful thunder. She could hear men shouting in the streets as well, and
something that could only be cheers.
It was Ser Dontos who brought her the word. He staggered through her open door, wrapped her in his
flabby arms, and whirled her around and around the room, whooping so incoherently that Sansa
understood not a word of it. He was as drunk as the Hound had been, but in him it was a dancing happy
drunk. She was breathless and dizzy when he let her down. "What is it?" She clutched at a bedpost.
"What's happened? Tell me! "


"It's done! Done! Done! The city is saved. Lord Stannis is dead , Lord Stannis is fled, no one knows, no
one cares, his host is broken, the danger's done. Slaughtered, scattered, or gone over, they say. Oh, the
bright banners! The banners, Jonquil, the banners! Do you have any wine? We ought to drink to this day,
yes. It means you're safe, don't you see?"
"Tell me what's happened!" Sansa shook him.
Ser Dontos laughed and hopped from one leg to the other, almost falling. "They came up through the
ashes while the river was burning. The river, Stannis was neck deep in the river, and they took him from
the rear. Oh, to be a knight again, to have been part of it! His own men hardly fought, they say. Some ran
but more bent the knee and went over, shouting for Lord Renly! What must Stannis have thought when
he heard that? I had it from Osney Kettleblack who had it from Ser Osmund, but Ser Balon's back now
and his men say the same, and the gold cloaks as well. We're delivered, sweetling! They came up the
roseroad and along the riverbank, through all the fields Stannis had burned, the ashes puffing up around
their boots and turning all their armor grey, but
oh! the banners must have been bright, the golden rose and golden lion and all the others, the Marbrand
tree and the Rowan, Tarly's huntsman and Redwyne's grapes and Lady Oakheart's leaf. All the
westermen, all the power of Highgarden and Casterly Rock! Lord Tywin himself had their right wing on
the north side of the river, with Randyll Tarly commanding the center and Mace Tyrell the left, but the
vanguard won the fight. They plunged through Stannis like a lance through a pumpkin, every man of them
howling like some demon in steel. And do you know who led the vanguard? Do you? Do you? Do yoW"
"Robb?" It was too much to be hoped, but . . .
"It was Lord Renly! Lord Renly in his green armor, with the fires shimmering off his golden antlers! Lord
Renly with his tall spear in his hand! They say he killed Ser Guyard Morrigen himself in single combat,
and a dozen other great knights as well. It was Renly, it was Renly, it was Renly! Oh! the banners,
darling Sansa! Oh! to be a knight!"
CHAPTER 62
DAENERYS
She was breaking her fast on a bowl of cold shrimp-and-persimmon soup when Irri brought her a
Qartheen gown, an airy confection of ivory samite patterned with seed pearls. "Take it away," Dany said.
"The docks are no place for lady's finery."
If the Milk Men thought her such a savage, she would dress the part for them. When she went to the
stables, she wore faded sandsilk pants and woven grass sandals. Her small breasts moved freely beneath
a painted Dothraki vest, and a curved dagger hung from her medallion belt. Jhiqui had braided her hair
Dothraki fashion, and fastened a silver bell to the end of the braid. "I have won no victories," she tried
telling her handmaid when the bell tinkled softly.
Jhiqui disagreed. "You burned the maegi in their house of dust and sent their souls to hell."


That was Drogon's victory, not mine, Dany wanted to say, but she held her tongue. The Dothraki would
esteem her all the more for a few bells in her hair. She chimed as she mounted her silver mare, and again
with every stride, but neither Ser Jorah nor her bloodriders made mention of it. To guard her people and
her dragons in her absence, she chose Rakharo. Jhogo and Aggo would ride with her to the waterfront.
They left the marble palaces and fragrant gardens behind and made their way through a poorer part of
the city where modest brick houses turned blind walls to the street. There were fewer horses and camels
to be seen, and a dearth of palanquins, but the streets teemed with children,
beggars, and skinny dogs the color of sand. Pale men in dusty linen skirts stood beneath arched
doorways to watch them pass. They know who I am, and they do not love me. Dany could tell from the
way they looked at her.
Ser Jorah would sooner have tucked her inside her palanquin, safely hidden behind silken curtains, but
she refused him. She had reclined too long on satin cushions, letting oxen bear her hither and yon. At
least when she rode she felt as though she was getting somewhere.
It was not by choice that she sought the waterfront. She was fleeing again. Her whole life had been one
long flight, it seemed. She had begun running in her mother's womb, and never once stopped. How often
had she and Viserys stolen away in the black of night, a bare step ahead of the Usurper's hired knives?
But it was run or die. Xaro had learned that Pyat Pree was gathering the surviving warlocks together to
work ill on her.
Dany had laughed when he told her. "Was it not you who told me warlocks were no more than old
soldiers, vainly boasting of forgotten deeds and lost prowess?"
Xaro looked troubled. "And so it was, then. But now? I am less certain. It is said that the glass candles
are burning in the house of Urrathon Night-Walker, that have not burned in a hundred years. Ghost grass
grows in the Garden of Gehane, phantom tortoises have been seen carrying messages between the
windowless houses on Warlock's Way, and all the rats in the city are chewing off their tails. The wife of
Mathos Mallarawan, who once mocked a warlock's drab moth-eaten robe, has gone mad and will wear
no clothes at all. Even fresh-washed silks make her feel as though a thousand insects were crawling on
her skin. And Blind Sybassion the Eater of Eyes can see again, or so his slaves do swear. A man must
wonder." He sighed. "These are strange times in Qarth. And strange times are bad for trade. it grieves me
to say so, yet it might be best if you left Qarth entirely, and sooner rather than later." Xaro stroked her
fingers reassuringly. "You need not go alone, though. You have seen dark visions in the Palace of Dust,
but Xaro has dreamed brighter dreams. I see you happily abed, with our child at your breast. Sail with
me around the jade Sea, and we can yet make it so! It is not too late. Give me a son, my sweet song of
joy!"
Give you a dragon, you mean. "I will not wed you, Xaro."
His face had grown cold at that. "Then go."
"But where?"
"Somewhere far from here."
Well, perhaps it was time. The people of her khalasar had welcomed the chance to recover from the
ravages of the red waste, but now that they were plump and rested once again, they began to grow
unruly. Dothraki were not accustomed to staying long in one place. They were a


warrior people, not made for cities. Perhaps she had lingered in Qarth too long, seduced by its comforts
and its beauties. It was a city that always promised more than it would give you, it seemed to her, and her
welcome here had turned sour since the House of the Undying had collapsed in a great gout of smoke
and flame. Overnight the Qartheen had come to remember that dragons were dangerous. No longer did
they vie with each other to give her gifts. Instead the Tourmaline Brotherhood had called openly for her
expulsion, and the Ancient Guild of Spicers for her death. it was all Xaro could do to keep the Thirteen
from joining them.
But where am I to go? Ser Jorah proposed that they journey farther east, away from her enemies in the
Seven Kingdoms. Her bloodriders would sooner have returned to their great grass sea, even if it meant
braving the red waste again. Dany herself had toyed with the idea of settling in Vaes Tolorro until her
dragons grew great and strong. But her heart was full of doubts. Each of these felt wrong, somehow . . .
and even when she decided where to go, the question of how she would get there remained troublesome.
Xaro Xhoan Daxos would be no help to her, she knew that now. For all his professions of devotion, he
was playing his own game, not unlike Pyat Pree. The night he asked her to leave, Dany had begged one
last favor of him. "An army, is it?" Xaro asked. "A kettle of gold? A galley, perhaps?"
Dany blushed. She hated begging. "A ship, yes."
Xaro's eyes had glittered as brightly as the jewels in his nose. "I am a trader, Khaleesi. So perhaps we
should speak no more of giving, but rather of trade. For one of your dragons, you shall have ten of the
finest ships in my fleet. You need only say that one sweet word."
"No," she said.
"Alas," Xaro sobbed, "that was not the word I meant."
"Would you ask a mother to sell one of her children?"
"Whyever not? They can always make more. Mothers sell their children every day."
"Not the Mother of Dragons."
"Not even for twenty ships?"
"Not for a hundred."
His mouth curled downward. "I do not have a hundred. But you have three dragons. Grant me one, for
all my kindnesses. You will still have two and thirty ships as well."
Thirty ships would be enough to land a small army on the shore of Westeros. But I do not have a small
army. "How many ships do you own, Xaro? "
"Eighty-three, if one does not count my pleasure barge."
"And your colleagues in the Thirteen?"
"Among us all, perhaps a thousand."


"And the Spicers and the Tourmaline Brotherhood?"
"Their trifling fleets are of no account."
"Even so," she said, "tell me."
"Twelve or thirteen hundred for the Spicers. No more than eight hundred for the Brotherhood."
"And the Asshai'i, the Braavosi, the Summer islanders, the Ibbenese, and all the other peoples who sail
the great salt sea, how many ships do they have? All together?"
"Many and more," he said irritably. "What does this matter?"
"I am trying to set a price on one of the three living dragons in the world." Dany smiled at him sweetly. "it
seems to me that one-third of all the ships in the world would be fair."
Xaro's tears ran down his cheeks on either side of his jewel-encrusted nose. "Did I not warn you not to
enter the Palace of Dust? This is the very thing I feared. The whispers of the warlocks have made you as
mad as Mallarawan's wife. A third of all the ships in the world? Pah. Pah, I say. Pah."
Dany had not seen him since. His seneschal brought her messages, each cooler than the last. She must
quit his house. He was done feeding her and her people. He demanded the return of his gifts, which she
had accepted in bad faith. Her only consolation was that at least she'd had the great good sense not to
marry him.
The warlocks whispered of three treasons . . . once for blood and once for gold and once for love. The
first traitor was surely Mirri Maz Duur, who had murdered Khal Drogo and their unborn son to avenge
her people. Could Pyat Pree and Xaro Xhoan Daxos be the second and the third? She did not think so.
What Pyat did was not for gold, and Xaro had never truly loved her.
The streets grew emptier as they passed through a district given over to gloomy stone warehouses. Aggo
went before her and Jhogo behind, leaving Ser Jorah Mormont at her side. Her bell rang softly, and Dany
found her thoughts returning to the Palace of Dust once more, as the tongue returns to a space left by a
missing tooth. Child of three, they had called her, daughter of death, slayer of lies, bride of fire. So many
threes. Three fires, three mounts to ride, three treasons. "The dragon has three heads," she sighed. "Do
you know what that means, Jorah?"
"Your Grace? The sigil of House Targaryen is a three-headed dragon, red on black."
"I know that. But there are no three-headed dragons."
"The three heads were Aegon and his sisters."
"Visenya and Rhaenys," she recalled. "I am descended from Aegon and Rhaenys through their son
Aenys and their grandson Jaehaerys."
"Blue lips speak only lies, isn't that what Xaro told you? Why do you care what the warlocks
whispered? All they wanted was to suck the life from you, you know that now."
"Perhaps," she said reluctantly. "Yet the things I saw


"A dead man in the prow of a ship, a blue rose, a banquet of blood . . . what does any of it mean,
Khaleesi? A mummer's dragon, you said. What is a mummer's dragon, pray?"
"A cloth dragon on poles," Dany explained. "Mummers use them in their follies, to give the heroes
something to fight."
Ser Jorah frowned.
Dany could not let it go. "His is the song of ice and fire, my brother said. I'm certain it was my brother.
Not Viserys, Rhaegar. He had a harp with silver strings."
Ser Jorah's frown deepened until his eyebrows came together. "Prince Rhaegar played such a harp," he
conceded. "You saw him?"
She nodded. "There was a woman in a bed with a babe at her breast. My brother said the babe was the
prince that was promised and told her to name him Aegon."
"Prince Aegon was Rhaegar's heir by Elia of Dorne," Ser Jorah said. "But if he was this prince that was
promised, the promise was broken along with his skull when the Lannisters dashed his head against a
wall."
"I remember," Dany said sadly. "They murdered Rhaegar's daughter as well, the little princess. Rhaenys,
she was named, like Aegon's sister. There was no Visenya, but he said the dragon has three heads. What
is the song of ice and fire?"
"It's no song I've ever heard."
"I went to the warlocks hoping for answers, but instead they've left me with a hundred new questions."
By then there were people in the streets once more. "Make way," Aggo shouted, while Jhogo sniffed at
the air suspiciously. "I smell it, Khaleesi," he called. "The poison water." The Dothraki distrusted the sea
and all that moved upon it. Water that a horse could not drink was water they wanted no part of. They
will learn, Dany resolved. I braved their sea with Khal Drogo. Now they can brave mine.
Qarth was one of the world's great ports, its great sheltered harbor a riot of color and clangor and
strange smells. Winesinks, warehouses, and gaming dens lined the streets, cheek by jowl with cheap
brothels and the temples of peculiar gods. Cutpurses, cutthroats, spellsellers, and moneychangers mingled
with every crowd. The waterfront was one great marketplace where the buying and selling went on all
day and all night, and goods might be had for a fraction of what they cost at the bazaar, if a man did not
ask where they came from. Wizened old women bent like
hunchbacks sold flavored waters and goat's milk from glazed ceramic jugs strapped to their shoulders.
Seamen from half a hundred nations wandered amongst the stalls, drinking spiced liquors and trading
jokes in queer-sounding tongues. The air smelled of salt and frying fish, of hot tar and honey, of incense
and oil and sperm.
Aggo gave an urchin a copper for a skewer of honey-roasted mice and nibbled them as he rode. Jhogo
bought a handful of fat white cherries. Elsewhere they saw beautiful bronze daggers for sale, dried squids
and carved onyx, a potent magical elixir made of virgin's milk and shade of the evening, even dragon's
eggs which looked suspiciously like painted rocks.


As they passed the long stone quays reserved for the ships of the Thirteen, she saw chests of saffron,
frankincense, and pepper being off-loaded from Xaro's ornate Vermillion Kiss. Beside her, casks of
wine, bales of sourleaf, and pallets of striped hides were being trundled up the gangplank onto the Bride
in Azure, to sail on the evening tide. Farther along, a crowd had gathered around the Spicer galley
Sunblaze to bid on slaves. it was well known that the cheapest place to buy a slave was right off the ship,
and the banners floating from her masts proclaimed that the Sunblaze had just arrived from Astapor on
Slaver's Bay.
Dany would get no help from the Thirteen, the Tourmaline Brotherhood, or the Ancient Guild of Spicers.
She rode her silver past several miles of their quays, docks, and storehouses, all the way out to the far
end of the horseshoe-shaped harbor where the ships from the Summer islands, Westeros, and the Nine
Free Cities were permitted to dock.
She dismounted beside a gaming pit where a basilisk was tearing a big red dog to pieces amidst a
shouting ring of sailors. "Aggo, Jhogo, you will guard the horses while Ser Jorah and I speak to the
captains."
"As you say, Khaleesi. We will watch you as you go."
It was good to hear men speaking Valyrian once more, and even the Common Tongue, Dany thought as
they approached the first ship. Sailors, dockworkers, and merchants alike gave way before her, not
knowing what to make of this slim young girl with silver-gold hair who dressed in the Dothraki fashion
and walked with a knight at her side. Despite the heat of the day, Ser Jorah wore his green wool surcoat
over chainmail, the black bear of Mormont sewn on his chest.
But neither her beauty nor his size and strength would serve with the men whose ships they needed.
"You require passage for a hundred Dothraki, all their horses, yourself and this knight, and three
dragons?" said the captain of the great cog Ardent Friend before he walked away laughing. When she
told a Lyseni on the Trumpeteer that she was Daenerys Stormborn, Queen of the Seven Kingdoms, he
gave her a deadface look and said, "Aye, and I'm
Lord Tywin Lannister and shit gold every night." The cargomaster of the Myrish galley Silken Spirit
opined that dragons were too dangerous at sea, where any stray breath of flame might set the rigging
afire. The owner of Lord Faro's Belly would risk dragons, but not Dothraki. "I'll have no such godless
savages in my Belly, I'll not." The two brothers who captained the sister ships Quicksilver and Greyhound
seemed sympathetic and invited them into the cabin for a glass of Arbor red. They were so courteous
that Dany was hopeful for a time, but in the end the price they asked was far beyond her means, and
might have been beyond Xaro's. Pinchbottom Petto and Sloe-Eyed Maid were too small for her needs,
Bravo was bound for the jade Sea, and Magister Manolo scarce looked seaworthy.
As they made their way toward the next quay, Ser Jorah laid a hand against the small of her back. "Your
Grace. You are being followed. No, do not turn." He guided her gently toward a brass-seller's booth.
"This is a noble work, my queen," he proclaimed loudly, lifting a large platter for her inspection. "See how
it shines in the sun?"
The brass was polished to a high sheen. Dany could see her face in it . . . and when Ser Jorah angled it
to the right, she could see behind her. "I see a fat brown man and an older man with a staff. Which is it?"
"Both of them," Ser Jorah said. "They have been following us since we left Quicksilver."


The ripples in the brass stretched the strangers queerly, making one man seem long and gaunt, the other
immensely squat and broad. "A most excellent brass, great lady," the merchant exclaimed. "Bright as the
sun! And for the Mother of Dragons, only thirty honors."
The platter was worth no more than three. "Where are my guards?" Dany declared. "This man is trying
to rob me!" For Jorah, she lowered her voice and spoke in the Common Tongue. "They may not mean
me ill. Men have looked at women since time began, perhaps it is no more than that."
The brass-seller ignored their whispers. "Thirty? Did I say thirty? Such a fool I am. The price is twenty
honors."
"All the brass in this booth is not worth twenty honors," Dany told him as she studied the reflections. The
old man had the look of Westeros about him, and the brown-skinned one must weigh twenty stone. The
Usurper offered a lordship to the man who kills me, and these two are far from home. Or could they be
creatures of the warlocks, meant to take me unawares?
"Ten, Khaleesi, because you are so lovely. Use it for a looking glass. Only brass this fine could capture
such beauty."
"It might serve to carry nightsoil. If you threw it away, I might pick it up, so long as I did not need to
stoop. But pay for it?" Dany shoved the
platter back into his hands. "Worms have crawled up your nose and eaten your wits."
"Eight honors," he cried. "My wives will beat me and call me fool, but I am a helpless child in your
hands. Come, eight, that is less than it is worth."
"What do I need with dull brass when Xaro Xhoan Daxos feeds me off plates of gold?" As she turned to
walk off, Dany let her glance sweep over the strangers. The brown man was near as wide as he'd looked
in the platter, with a gleaming bald head and the smooth cheeks of a eunuch. A long curving arakh was
thrust through the sweat-stained yellow silk of his bellyband. Above the silk, he was naked but for an
absurdly tiny iron-studded vest. Old scars crisscrossed his tree-trunk arms, huge chest, and massive
belly, pale against his nut-brown skin.
The other man wore a traveler's cloak of undyed wool, the hood thrown back. Long white hair fell to his
shoulders, and a silky white beard covered the lower half of his face. He leaned his weight on a
hardwood staff as tall as he was. Only fools would stare so openly if they meant me harm. All the same, it
might be prudent to head back toward Jhogo and Aggo. "The old man does not wear a sword," she said
to Jorah in the Common Tongue as she drew him away.
The brass merchant came hopping after them. "Five honors, for five it is yours, it was meant for you."
Ser Jorah said, "A hardwood staff can crack a skull as well as any mace."
"Four! I know you want it!" He danced in front of them, scampering backward as he thrust the platter at
their faces.
"Do they follow?"
"Lift that up a little higher," the knight told the merchant. "Yes. The old man pretends to linger at a
potter's stall, but the brown one has eyes only for you."


"Two honors! Two! Two!" The merchant was panting heavily from the effort of running backward.
"Pay him before he kills himself," Dany told Ser Jorah, wondering what she was going to do with a huge
brass platter. She turned back as he reached for his coins, intending to put an end to this mummer's farce.
The blood of the dragon would not be herded through the bazaar by an old man and a fat eunuch.
A Qartheen stepped into her path. "Mother of Dragons, for you." He knelt and thrust a jewel box into
her face.
Dany took it almost by reflex. The box was carved wood, its motherof-pearl lid inlaid with jasper and
chalcedony. "You are too generous." She opened it. Within was a glittering green scarab carved from
onyx and emerald. Beautiful, she thought. This will help pay for our passage. As
she reached inside the box, the man said, "I am so sorry," but she hardly heard.
The scarab unfolded with a hiss.
Dany caught a glimpse of a malign black face, almost human, and an arched tail dripping venom . . . and
then the box flew from her hand in pieces, turning end over end. Sudden pain twisted her fingers. As she
cried out and clutched her hand, the brass merchant let out a shriek, a woman screamed, and suddenly
the Qartheen were shouting and pushing each other aside. Ser Jorah slammed past her, and Dany
stumbled to one knee. She heard the hiss again. The old man drove the butt of his staff into the ground,
Aggo came riding through an eggseller's stall and vaulted from his saddle, Jhogo's whip cracked
overhead, Ser Jorah slammed the eunuch over the head with the brass platter, sailors and whores and
merchants were fleeing or shouting or both . . .
"Your Grace, a thousand pardons." The old man knelt. "It's dead. Did I break your hand?"
She closed her fingers, wincing. "I don't think so."
"I had to knock it away," he started, but her bloodriders were on him before he could finish. Aggo
kicked his staff away and Jhogo seized him round the shoulders, forced him to his knees, and pressed a
dagger to his throat. "Khaleesi, we saw him strike you. Would you see the color of his blood? "
"Release him." Dany climbed to her feet. "Look at the bottom of his staff, blood of my blood." Ser Jorah
had been shoved off his feet by the eunuch. She ran between them as arakh and longsword both came
flashing from their sheaths. "Put down your steel! Stop it!"
"Your Grace?" Mormont lowered his sword only an inch. "These men attacked you."
"They were defending me." Dany snapped her hand to shake the sting from her fingers. "It was the other
one, the Qartheen." When she looked around he was gone. "He was a Sorrowful Man. There was a
manticore in that jewel box he gave me. This man knocked it out of my hand." The brass merchant was
still rolling on the ground. She went to him and helped him to his feet. "Were you stung?"
"No, good lady," he said, shaking, "or else I would be dead. But it touched me, aieeee, when it fell from
the box it landed on my arm." He had soiled himself, she saw, and no wonder.
She gave him a silver for his trouble and sent him on his way before she turned back to the old man with
the white beard. "Who is it that I owe my life to?"


"You owe me nothing, Your Grace. I am called Arstan, though Belwas named me Whitebeard on the
voyage here." Though Jhogo had released him the old man remained on one knee. Aggo picked up his
staff, turned
it over, cursed softly in Dothraki, scraped the remains of the manticore off on a stone, and handed it
back.
"And who is Belwas?" she asked.
The huge brown eunuch swaggered forward, sheathing his arakh. "I am Belwas. Strong Belwas they
name me in the fighting pits of Meereen. Never did I lose." He slapped his belly, covered with scars. "I
let each man cut me once, before I kill him. Count the cuts and you will know how many Strong Belwas
has slain."
Dany had no need to count his scars; there were many, she could see at a glance. "And why are you
here, Strong Belwas?"
"From Meereen I am sold to Qohor, and then to Pentos and the fat man with sweet stink in his hair. He
it was who send Strong Belwas back across the sea, and old Whitebeard to serve him."
The fat man with sweet stink in his hair "Illyrio?" she said.
"You were sent by Magister Illyrio?"
"We were, Your Grace," old Whitebeard replied. "The Magister begs your kind indulgence for sending
us in his stead, but he cannot sit a horse as he did in his youth, and sea travel upsets his digestion." Earlier
he had spoken in the Valyrian of the Free Cities, but now he changed to the Common Tongue. "I regret if
we caused you alarm. If truth be told, we were not certain, we expected someone more . . . more . . ."
"Regal?" Dany laughed. She had no dragon with her, and her raiment was hardly queenly. "You speak
the Common Tongue well, Arstan. Are you of Westeros?"
"I am. I was born on the Dornish Marches, Your Grace. As a boy I squired for a knight of Lord
Swann's household." He held the tall staff upright beside him like a lance in need of a banner. "Now I
squire for Belwas."
"A bit old for such, aren't you?" Ser Jorah had shouldered his way to her side, holding the brass platter
awkwardly under his arm. Belwas's hard head had left it badly bent.
"Not too old to serve my liege, Lord Mormont."
"You know me as well?"
"I saw you fight a time or two. At Lannisport where you near unhorsed the Kingslayer. And on Pyke,
there as well. You do not recall, Lord Mormont?"
Ser Jorah frowned. "Your face seems familiar, but there were hundreds at Lannisport and thousands on
Pyke. And I am no lord. Bear Island was taken from me. I am but a knight."
"A knight of my Queensguard." Dany took his arm. "And my true friend and good counselor." She


studied Arstan's face. He had a great dignity to him, a quiet strength she liked. "Rise, Arstan Whitebeard.
Be welcome, Strong Belwas. Ser Jorah you know. Ko Aggo and Ko Jhogo are
blood of my blood. They crossed the red waste with me, and saw my dragons born."
"Horse boys." Belwas grinned toothily. "Belwas has killed many horse boys in the fighting pits. They
jingle when they die."
Aggo's arakh leapt to his hand. "Never have I killed a fat brown man. Belwas will be the first."
"Sheath your steel, blood of my blood," said Dany, "this man comes to serve me. Belwas, you will
accord all respect to my people, or you will leave my service sooner than you'd wish, and with more
scars than when you came."
The gap-toothed smile faded from the giant's broad brown face, replaced by a confused scowl. Men did
not often threaten Belwas, it would seem, and less so girls a third his size.
Dany gave him a smile, to take a bit of the sting from the rebuke. "Now tell me, what would Magister
Illyrio have of me, that he would send you all the way from Pentos?"
"He would have dragons," said Belwas gruffly, "and the girl who makes them. He would have you."
"Belwas has the truth of us, Your Grace," said Arstan. "We were told to find you and bring you back to
Pentos. The Seven Kingdoms have need of you. Robert the Usurper is dead, and the realm bleeds.
When we set sail from Pentos there were four kings in the land, and no justice to be had."
joy bloomed in her heart, but Dany kept it from her face. "I have three dragons," she said, "and more
than a hundred in my khalasar, with all their goods and horses."
"it is no matter," boomed Belwas. "We take all. The fat man hires three ships for his little silverhair
queen."
"it is so, Your Grace," Arstan Whitebeard said. "The great cog Saduleon is berthed at the end of the
quay, and the galleys Summer Sun and foso's Prank are anchored beyond the breakwater."
Three heads has the dragon, Dany thought, wondering. "I shall tell my people to make ready to depart at
once. But the ships that bring me home must bear different names."
"As you wish," said Arstan. "What names would you prefer?"
"Vhagar, " Daenerys told him. "Meraxes. And Balerion. Paint the names on their hulls in golden letters
three feet high, Arstan. I want every man who sees them to know the dragons are returned."
CHAPTER 63
ARYA


The heads had been dipped in tar to slow the rot. Every morning when Arya went to the well to draw
fresh water for Roose Bolton's basin, she had to pass beneath them. They faced outward, so she never
saw their faces, but she liked to pretend that one of them was Joffrey's. She tried to picture how his
pretty face would look dipped in tar. If I was a crow I could fly down and peck off his stupid fat pouty
lips.
The heads never lacked for attendants. The carrion crows wheeled about the gatehouse in raucous
unkindness and quarreled upon the ramparts over every eye, screaming and cawing at each other and
taking to the air whenever a sentry passed along the battlements. Sometimes the maester's ravens joined
the feast as well, flapping down from the rookery on wide black wings. When the ravens came the crows
would scatter, only to return the moment the larger birds were gone.
Do the ravens remember Maester Tothmure? Arya wondered. Are they sad for him? When they quork
at him, do they wonder why he doesn't answer? Perhaps the dead could speak to them in some secret
tongue the living could not hear.
Tothmure had been sent to the axe for dispatching birds to Casterly Rock and King's Landing the night
Harrenhal had fallen, Lucan the armorer for making weapons for the Lannisters, Goodwife Harra for
telling Lady Whent's household to serve them, the steward for giving Lord Tywin the keys to the treasure
vault. The cook was spared (some said
because he'd made the weasel soup), but stocks were hammered together for pretty Pia and the other
women who'd shared their favors with Lannister soldiers. Stripped and shaved, they were left in the
middle ward beside the bear pit, free for the use of any man who wanted them.
Three Frey men-at-arms were using them that morning as Arya went to the well. She tried not to look,
but she could hear the men laughing. The pail was very heavy once full. She was turning to bring it back
to Kingspyre when Goodwife Amabel seized her arm. The water went sloshing over the side onto
Amabel's legs. "You did that on purpose," the woman screeched.
"What do you want?" Arya squirmed in her grasp. Amabel had been half-crazed since they'd cut Harra's
head off.
"See there?" Arnabel pointed across the yard at Pia. "When this northman falls you'll be where she is."
"Let me go." She tried to wrench free, but Amabel only tightened her fingers.
"He will fall too, Harrenhal pulls them all down in the end. Lord Tywin's won now, he'll be marching
back with all his power, and then it will be his turn to punish the disloyal. And don't think he won't know
what you did!" The old woman laughed. "I may have a turn at you myself. Harra had an old broom, I'll
save it for you. The handle's cracked and splintery-"
Arya swung the bucket. The weight of the water made it turn in her hands, so she didn't smash Amabel's
head in as she wanted, but the woman let go of her anyway when the water came out and drenched her.
"Don't ever touch me," Arya shouted, "or I'll kill you. You get away."
Sopping, Goodwife Amabel jabbed a thin finger at the flayed man on the front of Arya's tunic. "You
think you're safe with that little bloody man on your teat, but you're not! The Lannisters are coming! See
what happens when they get here."
Three-quarters of the water had splashed out on the ground, so Arya had to return to the well. If I told


Lord Bolton what she said, her head would be up next to Harra's before it got dark, she thought as she
drew up the bucket again. She wouldn't, though.
Once, when there had been only half as many heads, Gendry had caught Arya looking at them.
"Admiring your work?" he asked.
He was angry because he'd liked Lucan, she knew, but it still wasn't fair. "It's Steelshanks Walton's
work," she said defensively. "And the Mummers, and Lord Bolton."
"And who gave us all them? You and your weasel soup."
Arya punched his arm. "It was just hot broth. You hated Ser Amory too."
"I hate this lot worse. Ser Amory was fighting for his lord, but the Mummers are sellswords and
turncloaks. Half of them can't even speak the Common Tongue. Septon Utt likes little boys, Qyburn
does black magic, and your friend Biter eats people."
The worst thing was, she couldn't even say he was wrong. The Brave Companions did most of the
foraging for Harrenhal, and Roose Bolton had given them the task of rooting out Lannisters. Vargo Hoat
had divided them into four bands, to visit as many villages as possible. He led the largest group himself,
and gave the others to his most trusted captains. She had heard Rorge laughing over Lord Vargo's way
of finding traitors. All he did was return to places he had visited before under Lord Tywin's banner and
seize those who had helped him. Many had been bought with Lannister silver, so the Mummers often
returned with bags of coin as well as baskets of heads. "A riddle!" Shagwell would shout gleefully. "If
Lord Bolton's goat eats the men who fed Lord Lannister's goat, how many goats are there?"
"One," Arya said when he asked her.
"Now there's a weasel clever as a goat!" the fool tittered.
Rorge and Biter were as bad as the others. Whenever Lord Bolton took a meal with the garrison, Arya
would see them there among the rest. Biter gave off a stench like bad cheese, so the Brave Companions
made him sit down near the foot of the table where he could grunt and hiss to himself and tear his meat
apart with fingers and teeth. He would sniff at Arya when she passed, but it was Rorge who scared her
most. He sat up near Faithful Ursywck, but she could feel his eyes crawling over her as she went about
her duties.
Sometimes she wished she had gone off across the narrow sea with Jaqen H'ghar. She still had the
stupid coin he'd given her, a piece of iron no larger than a penny and rusted along the rim. One side had
writing on it, queer words she could not read. The other showed a man's head, but so worn that all his
features had rubbed off. He said it was of great value, but that was probably a lie too, like his name and
even his face. That made her so angry that she threw the coin away, but after an hour she got to feeling
bad and went and found it again, even though it wasn't worth anything.
She was thinking about the coin as she crossed the Flowstone Yard, struggling with the weight of the
water in her pail. "Nan," a voice called out. "Put down that pail and come help me."
Elmar Frey was no older than she was, and short for his age besides. He had been rolling a barrel of
sand across the uneven stone, and was red-faced from exertion. Arya went to help him. Together they
pushed the barrel all the way to the wall and back again, then stood it upright.


She could hear the sand shifting around inside as Elmar pried open the lid and pulled out a chainmail
hauberk. "Do you think it's clean enough?" As Roose Bolton's squire, it was his task to keep his mail
shiny bright.
"You need to shake out the sand. There's still spots of rust. See?" She pointed. "You'd best do it again."
"You do it." Elmar could be friendly when he needed help, but afterward he would always remember
that he was a squire and she was only a serving girl, He liked to boast how he was the son of the Lord of
the Crossing, not a nephew or a bastard or a grandson but a trueborn son, and on account of that he was
going to marry a princess.
Arya didn't care about his precious princess, and didn't like him giving her commands. "I have to bring
m'lord water for his basin. He's in his bedchamber being leeched. Not the regular black leeches but the
big pale ones."
Elmar's eyes got as big as boiled eggs. Leeches terrified him, especially the big pale ones that looked like
jelly until they filled up with blood. "I forgot, you're too skinny to push such a heavy barrel."
"I forgot, you're stupid." Arya picked up the pail. "Maybe you should get leeched too. There's leeches in
the Neck as big as pigs." She left him there with his barrel.
The lord's bedchamber was crowded when she entered. Qyburn was in attendance, and dour Walton in
his mail shirt and greaves, plus a dozen Freys, all brothers, half brothers, and cousins. Roose Bolton lay
abed, naked. Leeches clung to the inside of his arms and legs and dotted his pallid chest, long translucent
things that turned a glistening pink as they fed. Bolton paid them no more mind than he did Arya.
"We must not allow Lord Tywin to trap us here at Harrenhal Ser Aenys Frey was saying as Arya filled
the washbasin. A grey stooped giant of a man with watery red eyes and huge gnarled hands, Ser Aenys
had brought fifteen hundred Frey swords south to Harrenhal, yet it often seemed as if he were helpless to
command even his own brothers. "The castle is so large it requires an army to hold it, and once
surrounded we cannot feed an army. Nor can we hope to lay in sufficient supplies, The country is ash,
the villages given over to wolves, the harvest burnt or stolen. Autumn is on us, yet there is no food in
store and none being planted. We live on forage, and if the Lannisters deny that to us, we will be down to
rats and shoe leather in a moon's turn."
"I do not mean to be besieged here." Roose Bolton's voice was so soft that men had to strain to hear it,
so his chambers were always strangely hushed.
"What, then?" demanded Ser Jared Frey, who was lean, balding, and
pockmarked. "Is Edmure Tully so drunk on his victory that he thinks to give Lord Tywin battle in the
open field?"
If he does he'll beat them, Arya thought. He'll beat them as he did on the Red Fork, you'll see.
Unnoticed, she went to stand by Qyburn.
"Lord Tywin is many leagues from here," Bolton said calmly. "He has many matters yet to settle at King's
Landing. He will not march on Harrenhal for some time."
Ser Aenys shook his head stubbornly. "You do not know the Lannisters as we do, my lord. King
Stannis thought that Lord Tywin was a thousand leagues away as well, and it undid him."


The pale man in the bed smiled faintly as the leeches nursed of his blood. "I am not a man to be undone,
ser."
"Even if Riverrun marshals all its strength and the Young Wolf wins back from the west, how can we
hope to match the numbers Lord Tywin can send against us? When he comes, he will come with far
more power than he commanded on the Green Fork. Highgarden has joined itself to Joffrey's cause, I
remind you!"
"I had not forgotten."
"I have been Lord Tywin's captive once," said Ser Hosteen, a husky man with a square face who was
said to be the strongest of the Freys. "I have no wish to enjoy Lannister hospitality again."
Ser Harys Haigh, who was a Frey on his mother's side, nodded vigorously. "If Lord Tywin could defeat
a seasoned man like Stannis Baratheon, what chance will our boy king have against him?" He looked
round to his brothers and cousins for support, and several of them muttered agreement.
"Someone must have the courage to say it," Ser Hosteen said. "The war is lost. King Robb must be
made to see that."
Roose Bolton studied him with pale eyes. "His Grace has defeated the Lannisters every time he has
faced them in battle."
"He has lost the north," insisted Hosteen Frey. "He has lost Winterfell! His brothers are dead . . ."
For a moment Arya forgot to breathe. Dead? Bran and Rickon, dead? What does he mean? What does
he mean about Winterfell, loffrey could never take Winterfell, never, Robb would never let him. Then she
remembered that Robb was not at Winterfell. He was away in the west, and Bran was crippled, and
Rickon only four. It took all her strength to remain still and silent, the way Syrio Forel had taught her, to
stand there like a stick of furniture. She felt tears gathering in her eyes, and willed them away. It's not
true, it can't be true, it's just some Lannister lie.
"Had Stannis won, all might have been different," Ronel Rivers said wistfully. He was one of Lord
Walder's bastards.
"Stannis lost," Ser Hosteen said bluntly. "Wishing it were otherwise will not make it so. King Robb must
make his peace with the Lannisters. He must put off his crown and bend the knee, little as he may like it."
"And who will tell him so?" Roose Bolton smiled. "It is a fine thing to have so many valiant brothers in
such troubled times. I shall think on all you've said."
His smile was dismissal. The Freys made their courtesies and shuffled out, leaving only Qyburn,
Steelshanks Walton, and Arya. Lord Bolton beckoned her closer. "I am bled sufficiently. Nan, you may
remove the leeches."
"At once, my lord." It was best never to make Roose Bolton ask twice. Arya wanted to ask him what
Ser Hosteen had meant about Winterfell, but she dared not. I'll ask Elmar, she thought. Elmar will tell me.
The leeches wriggled slowly between her fingers as she plucked them carefully from the lord's body, their
pale bodies moist to the touch and distended with blood. They're only leeches, she reminded herself. If I
closed my hand, they'd squish between my fingers.


"There is a letter from your lady wife." Qyburn pulled a roll of parchment from his sleeve. Though he
wore maester's robes, there was no chain about his neck; it was whispered that he had lost it for dabbling
in necromancy.
"You may read it," Bolton said.
The Lady Walda wrote from the Twins almost every day, but all the letters were the same. "I pray for
you morn, noon, and night, my sweet lord," she wrote, "and count the days until you share my bed again.
Return to me soon, and I will give you many trueborn sons to take the place of your dear Domeric and
rule the Dreadfort after you." Arya pictured a plump pink baby in a cradle, covered with plump pink
leeches.
She brought Lord Bolton a damp washcloth to wipe down his soft hairless body. "I will send a letter of
my own," he told the onetime maester.
"To the Lady Walda?"
"To Ser Helman Tallhart."
A rider from Ser Helman had come two days past. Tallhart men had taken the castle of the Darrys,
accepting the surrender of its Lannister garrison after a brief siege.
"Tell him to put the captives to the sword and the castle to the torch, by command of the king. Then he is
to join forces with Robett Glover and strike east toward Duskendale. Those are rich lands, and hardly
touched by the fighting. It is time they had a taste. Glover has lost a castle, and Tallhart a son. Let them
take their vengeance on Duskendale."
"I shall prepare the message for your seal, my lord."
Arya was glad to hear that the castle of the Darrys would be burned. That was where they'd brought her
when she'd been caught after her fight with Joffrey, and where the queen had made her father kill Sansa's
wolf. It deserves to burn. She wished that Robett Glover and Ser Helman Tallhart would come back to
Harrenhal, though; they had marched too quickly, before she'd been able to decide whether to trust them
with her secret.
"I will hunt today," Roose Bolton announced as Qyburn helped him into a quilted jerkin.
"Is it safe, my lord?" Qyburn asked. "Only three days past, Septon Utt's men were attacked by wolves.
They came right into his camp, not five yards from the fire, and killed two horses."
"It is wolves I mean to hunt. I can scarcely sleep at night for the howling." Bolton buckled on his belt,
adjusting the hang of sword and dagger. "It's said that direwolves once roamed the north in great packs
of a hundred or more, and feared neither man nor mammoth, but that was long ago and in another land. It
is queer to see the common wolves of the south so bold."
"Terrible times breed terrible things, my lord."
Bolton showed his teeth in something that might have been a smile. "Are these times so terrible,
Maester?"


"Summer is gone and there are four kings in the realm."
"One king may be terrible, but four?" He shrugged. "Nan, my fur cloak." She brought it to him. "My
chambers will be clean and orderly upon my return," he told her as she fastened it. "And tend to Lady
Walda's letter."
"As you say, my lord."
The lord and maester swept from the room, giving her not so much as a backward glance. When they
were gone, Arya took the letter and carried it to the hearth, stirring the logs with a poker to wake the
flames anew. She watched the parchment twist, blacken, and flare up. If the Lannisters hurt Bran and
Rickon, Robb will kill them every one. He'll never bend the knee, never, never, never. He's not afraid of
any of them. Curls of ash floated up the chimney. Arya squatted beside the fire, watching them rise
through a veil of hot tears. If Winterfell is truly gone, is this my home now? Am I still Arya, or only Nan
the serving girl, for forever and forever and forever?
She spent the next few hours tending to the lord's chambers. She swept out the old rushes and scattered
fresh sweetsmelling ones, laid a fresh fire in the hearth, changed the linens and fluffed the featherbed,
emptied the chamber pots down the privy shaft and scrubbed them out, carried an armload of soiled
clothing to the washerwomen, and brought up a bowl of crisp autumn pears from the kitchen. When she
was done
with the bedchamber, she went down half a flight of stairs to do the same in the great solar, a spare
drafty room as large as the halls of many a smaller castle. The candles were down to stubs, so Arya
changed them out. Under the windows was a huge oaken table where the lord wrote his letters. She
stacked the books, changed the candles, put the quills and inks and sealing wax in order.
A large ragged sheepskin was tossed across the papers. Arya had started to roll it up when the colors
caught her eye: the blue of lakes and rivers, the red dots where castles and citie's could be found, the
green of woods. She spread it out instead. THE LANDS OF THE TRIDENT, said the ornate script
beneath the map. The drawing showed everything from the Neck to the Blackwater Rush. There's
Harrenhal at the top of the big lake, she realized, but where's Riverrun? Then she saw. It's not so far . . .
The afternoon was still young by the time she was done, so Arya took herself off to the godswood. Her
duties were lighter as Lord Bolton's cupbearer than they had been under Weese or even Pinkeye, though
they required dressing like a page and washing more than she liked. The hunt would not return for hours,
so she had a little time for her needlework.
She slashed at birch leaves till the splintery point of the broken broomstick was green and sticky. "Ser
Gregor," she breathed. "Dunsen, Polliver, Raff the Sweetling." She spun and leapt and balanced on the
balls of her feet, darting this way and that, knocking pinecones flying. "The Tickler," she called out one
time, "the Hound," the next. "Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, Queen Cersei." The bole of an oak loomed before her,
and she lunged to drive her point through it, grunting "Joffrey, Joffrey, Joffrey." Her arms and legs were
dappled by sunlight and the shadows of leaves. A sheen of sweat covered her skin by the time she
paused. The heel of her right foot was bloody where she'd skinned it, so she stood one-legged before the
heart tree and raised her sword in salute. "Valar morghulis, " she told the old gods of the north. She liked
how the words sounded when she said them.
As Arya crossed the yard to the bathhouse, she spied a raven circling down toward the rookery, and
wondered where it had come from and what message it carried. Might be it's from Robb, come to say it
wasn't true about Bran and Rickon. She chewed on her lip, hoping. If I had wings I could fly back to


Winterfell and see for myself. And if it was true, I'd just fly away, fly up past the moon and the shining
stars, and see all the things in Old Nan's stories, dragons and sea monsters and the Titan of Braavos, and
maybe I wouldn't ever fly back unless I wanted to.
The hunting party returned near evenfall with nine dead wolves. Seven were adults, big grey-brown
beasts, savage and powerful, their
mouths drawn back over long yellow teeth by their dying snarls. But the other two had only been pups.
Lord Bolton gave orders for the skins to be sewn into a blanket for his bed. "Cubs still have that soft fur,
my lord," one of his men pointed out. "Make you a nice warm pair of gloves."
Bolton glanced up at the banners waving above the gatehouse towers. "As the Starks are wont to
remind us, winter is coming. Have it done." When he saw Arya looking on, he said, "Nan, I'll want a
flagon of hot spice wine, I took a chill in the woods. See that it doesn't get cold. I'm of a mind to sup
alone. Barley bread, butter, and boar."
"At once, my lord." That was always the best thing to say.
Hot Pic was making oatcakes when she entered the kitchen. Three other cooks were boning fish, while
a spit boy turned a boar over the flames. "My lord wants his supper, and hot spice wine to wash it
down," Arya announced, "and he doesn't want it cold." One of the cooks washed his hands, took out a
kettle, and filled it with a heavy, sweet red. Hot Pie was told to crumble in the spices as the wine heated.
Arya went to help.
"I can do it," he said sullenly. "I don't need you to show me how to spice wine."
He hates me too, or else he's scared of me. She backed away, more sad than angry. When the food
was ready, the cooks covered it with a silver cover and wrapped the flagon in a thick towel to keep it
warm. Dusk was settling outside. On the walls the crows muttered round the heads like courtiers round a
king. One of the guards held the door to Kingspyre. "Hope that's not weasel soup," he jested.
Roose Bolton was seated by the hearth reading from a thick leatherbound book when she entered.
"Light some candles," he commanded her as he turned a page. "It grows gloomy in here."
She placed the food at his elbow and did as he bid her, filling the room with flickering light and the scent
of cloves. Bolton turned a few more pages with his finger, then closed the book and placed it carefully in
the fire. He watched the flames consume it, pale eyes shining with reflected light. The old dry leather went
up with a whoosh, and the yellow pages stirred as they burned, as if some ghost were reading them. "I
will have no further need of you tonight," he said, never looking at her.
She should have gone, silent as a mouse, but something had hold of her. "My lord," she asked, "will you
take me with you when you leave Harrenhal? "
He turned to stare at her, and from the look in his eyes it was as if his supper had just spoken to him.
"Did I give you leave to question me, Nan?"
"No, my lord." She lowered her eyes.
"You should not have spoken, then. Should you?"
"No. My lord."


For a moment he looked amused. "I will answer you, just this once. I mean to give Harrenhal to Lord
Vargo when I return to the north. You will remain here, with him."
"But I don't-" she started.
He cut her off. "I am not in the habit of being questioned by servants, Nan. Must I have your tongue
out?"
He would do it as easily as another man might cuff a dog, she knew. "No, my lord."
"Then I'll hear no more from you?"
"No, my lord."
"Go, then. I shall forget this insolence."
Arya went, but not to her bed. When she stepped out into the darkness of the yard, the guard on the
door nodded at her and said, "Storm coming. Smell the air?" The wind was gusting, flames swirling off
the torches mounted atop the walls beside the rows of heads. On her way to the godswood, she passed
the Wailing Tower where once she had lived in fear of Weese. The Freys had taken it for their own since
Harrenhal's fall. She could hear angry voices coming from a window, many men talking and arguing all at
once. Elmar was sitting on the steps outside, alone.
"What's wrong?" Arya asked him when she saw the tears shining on his cheeks.
"My princess," he sobbed. "We've been dishonored, Aenys says. There was a bird from the Twins. My
lord father says I'll need to marry someone else, or be a septon."
A stupid princess, she thought, that's nothing to cry over. "My brothers might be dead," she confided.
Elmar gave her a scornful look. "No one cares about a serving girl's brothers."
It was hard not to hit him when he said that. "I hope your princess dies " she said, and ran off before he
could grab her.
in the godswood she found her broomstick sword where she had left it, and carried it to the heart tree.
There she knelt. Red leaves rustled. Red eyes peered inside her. The eyes of the gods. "Tell me what to
do, you gods," she prayed.
For a long moment there was no sound but the wind and the water and the creak of leaf and limb. And
then, far far off, beyond the godswood and the haunted towers and the immense stone walls of
Harrenhal, from somewhere out in the world, came the long lonely howl of a wolf. Gooseprickles rose on
Arya's skin, and for an instant she felt dizzy. Then, so faintly, it seemed as if she heard her father's voice.
"When the snows fall and the white winds blow, the lone wolf dies, but the pack survives," he said.
"But there is no pack," she whispered to the weirwood. Bran and
Rickon were dead, the Lannisters had Sansa, Jon had gone to the Wall. "I'm not even me now, I'm
Nan."


"You are Arya of Winterfell, daughter of the north. You told me you could be strong. You have the wolf
blood in you."
"The wolf blood." Arya remembered now. "I'll be as strong as Robb. I said I would." She took a deep
breath, then lifted the broomstick in both hands and brought it down across her knee. It broke with a
loud crack, and she threw the pieces aside. I am a direwolf, and done with wooden teeth.
That night she lay in her narrow bed upon the scratchy straw, listening to the voices of the living and the
dead whisper and argue as she waited for the moon to rise. They were the only voices she trusted
anymore. She could hear the sound of her own breath, and the wolves as well, a great pack of them
now. They are closer than the one I heard in the godswood, she thought. They are calling to me.
Finally she slipped from under the blanket, wriggled into a tunic, and padded barefoot down the stairs.
Roose Bolton was a cautious man, and the entrance to Kingspyre was guarded day and night, so she had
to slip out of a narrow cellar window. The yard was still, the great castle lost in haunted dreams. Above,
the wind keened through the Wailing Tower.
At the forge she found the fires extinguished and the doors closed and barred. She crept in a window, as
she had once before. Gendry shared a mattress with two other apprentice smiths. She crouched in the
loft for a long time before her eyes adjusted enough for her to be sure that he was the one on the end.
Then she put a hand over his mouth and pinched him. His eyes opened. He could not have been very
deeply asleep. "Please," she whispered. She took her hand off his mouth and pointed.
For a moment she did not think he understood, but then he slid out from under the blankets. Naked, he
padded across the room, shrugged into a loose roughspun tunic, and climbed down from the loft after
her. The other sleepers did not stir. "What do you want now?" Gendry said in a low angry voice.
"A sword."
"Blackthumb keeps all the blades locked up, I told you that a hundred times. Is this for Lord Leech?"
"For me. Break the lock with your hammer."
"They'll break my hand," he grumbled. "Or worse."
"Not if you run off with me."
"Run, and they'll catch you and kill you."
"They'll do you worse. Lord Bolton is giving Harrenhal to the Bloody Mummers, he told me so."
Gendry pushed black hair out of his eyes. "So?"
She looked right at him, fearless. "So when Vargo Hoat's the lord, he's
going to cut off the feet of all the servants to keep them from running away. The smiths too."
"That's only a story," he said scornfully.
, 'No, it's true, I heard Lord Vargo say so," she lied. "He's going to cut one foot off everyone. The left
one. Go to the kitchens and wake Hot Pie, he'll do what you say. We'll need bread or oakcakes or


something. You get the swords and I'll do the horses. We'll meet near the postern in the east wall, behind
the Tower of Ghosts. No one ever comes there."
"I know that gate. It's guarded, same as the rest."
"So? You won't forget the swords?"
"I never said I'd come."
"No. But if you do, you won't forget the swords?"
He frowned. "No," he said at last. "I guess I won't."
Arya reentered Kingspyre the same way she had left it, and stole up the winding steps listening for
footfalls. In her cell, she stripped to the skin and dressed herself carefully, in two layers of smallclothes,
warm stockings, and her cleanest tunic. It was Lord Bolton's livery. On the breast was sewn his sigil, the
flayed man of the Dreadfort. She tied her shoes, threw a wool cloak over her skinny shoulders, and
knotted it under her throat. Quiet as a shadow, she moved back down the stairs. Outside the lord's solar
she paused to listen at the door, easing it open slowly when she heard only silence.
The sheepskin map was on the table, beside the remains of Lord Bolton's supper. She rolled it up tight
and thrust it through her belt. He'd left his dagger on the table as well, so she took that too, just in case
Gendry lost his courage.
A horse neighed softly as she slipped into the darkened stables. The grooms were all asleep. She
prodded one with her toe until he sat up groggily and said, "Eh? Whas?"
"Lord Bolton requires three horses saddled and bridled."
The boy got to his feet, pushing straw from his hair. "Wha, at this hour? Horses, you say?" He blinked at
the sigil on her tunic. "Whas he want horses for, in the dark?"
"Lord Bolton is not in the habit of being questioned by servants." She crossed her arms.
The stableboy was still looking at the flayed man. He knew what it meant. "Three, you say?"
"One two three. Hunting horses. Fast and surefoot." Arya helped him with the bridles and saddles, so he
would not need to wake any of the others. She hoped they would not hurt him afterward, but she knew
they probably would.
Leading the horses across the castle was the worst part. She stayed in the shadow of the curtain wall
whenever she could, so the sentries
walking their rounds on the ramparts above would have needed to look almost straight down to see her.
And if they do, what of it? I'm my lord's own cupbearer. It was a chill dank autumn night. Clouds were
blowing in from the west, hiding the stars, and the Wailing Tower screamed mournfully at every gust of
wind. It smells like rain. Arya did not know whether that would be good or bad for their escape.
No one saw her, and she saw no one, only a grey and white cat creeping along atop the godswood wall.
It stopped and spit at her, waking memories of the Red Keep and her father and Syrio Forel. "I could
catch you if I wanted," she called to it softly, "but I have to go, cat." The cat hissed again and ran off.


The Tower of Ghosts was the most ruinous of Harrenhal's five immense towers. It stood dark and
desolate behind the remains of a collapsed sept where only rats had come to pray for near three hundred
years. It was there she waited to see if Gendry and Hot Pie would come. It seemed as though she waited
a long time. The horses nibbled at the weeds that grew up between the broken stones while the clouds
swallowed the last of the stars. Arya took out the dagger and sharpened it to keep her hands busy. Long
smooth strokes, the way Syrio had taught her. The sound calmed her.
She heard them coming long before she saw them. Hot Pie was breathing heavily, and once he stumbled
in the dark, barked his shin, and cursed loud enough to wake half of Harrenhal. Gendry was quieter, but
the swords he was carrying rang together as he moved. "Here I am." She stood. "Be quiet or they'll hear
you."
The boys picked their way toward her over tumbled stones. Gendry was wearing oiled chainmail under
his cloak, she saw, and he had his blacksmith's hammer slung across his back. Hot Pie's red round face
peered out from under a hood. He had a sack of bread dangling from his right hand and a big wheel of
cheese under his left arm. "There's a guard on that postern," said Gendry quietly. "I told you there would
be."
"You stay here with the horses," said Arya. "I'll get rid of him. Come quick when I call."
Gendry nodded. Hot Pie said, "Hoot like an owl when you want us to come."
"I'm not an owl," said Arya. "I'm a wolf. I'll howl."
Alone, she slid through the shadow of the Tower of Ghosts. She walked fast, to keep ahead of her fear,
and it felt as though Syrio Forel walked beside her, and Yoren, and Jaqen H'ghar, and Jon Snow. She
had not taken the sword Gendry had brought her, not yet. For this the dagger would be better. It was
good and sharp. This postern was the least of Harrenhal's gates, a narrow door of stout oak studded
with iron nails, set in an angle of the wall beneath a defensive tower. Only one man was set
to guard it, but she knew there would be sentries up in that tower as well, and others nearby walking the
walls. Whatever happened, she must be quiet as a shadow. He must not call out. A few scattered
raindrops had begun to fall. She felt one land on her brow and run slowly down her nose.
She made no effort to hide, but approached the guard openly, as if Lord Bolton himself had sent her. He
watched her come, curious as to what might bring a page here at this black hour. When she got closer,
she saw that he was a northman, very tall and thin, huddled in a ragged fur cloak. That was bad. She
might have been able to trick a Frey or one of the Brave Companions, but the Dreadfort men had served
Roose Bolton their whole life, and they knew him better than she did. If I tell him I am Arya Stark and
command him to stand aside . . . No, she dare not. He was a northman, but not a Winterfell man. He
belonged to Roose Bolton.
When she reached him she pushed back her cloak so he would see the flayed man on her breast. "Lord
Bolton sent me."
"At this hour? Why for?"
She could see the gleam of steel under the fur, and she did not know if she was strong enough to drive
the point of the dagger through chainmail. His throat, it must be his throat, but he's too tall, I'll never reach
it. For a moment she did not know what to say. For a moment she was a little girl again, and scared, and


the rain on her face felt like tears.
"He told me to give all his guards a silver piece, for their good service." The words seemed to come out
of nowhere.
"Silver, you say?" He did not believe her, but he wanted to; silver was silver, after all. "Give it over,
then."
Her fingers dug down beneath her tunic and came out clutching the coin Jaqen had given her. In the dark
the iron could pass for tarnished silver. She held it out . . . and let it slip through her fingers.
Cursing her softly, the man went to a knee to grope for the coin in the dirt and there was his neck right in
front of her. Arya slid her dagger out and drew it across his throat, as smooth as summer silk. His blood
covered her hands in a hot gush and he tried to shout but there was blood in his mouth as well.
"Valar morghulis, " she whispered as he died.
When he stopped moving, she picked up the coin. Outside the walls of Harrenhal, a wolf howled long
and loud. She lifted the bar, set it aside, and pulled open the heavy oak door. By the time Hot Pie and
Gendry came up with the horses, the rain was falling hard. "You killed him!" Hot Pie gasped.
"What did you think I would do?" Her fingers were sticky with blood, and the smell was making her
mare skittish. It's no matter, she thought, swinging up into the saddle. The rain will wash them clean again.
CHAPTER 64
SANSA
The throne room was a sea of jewels, furs, and bright fabrics. Lords and ladies filled the back of the hall
and stood beneath the high windows, jostling like fishwives on a dock.
The denizens of Joffrey's court had striven to outdo each other today. Jalabhar Xho was all in feathers, a
plumage so fantastic and extravagant that he seemed like to take flight. The High Septon's crystal crown
fired rainbows through the air every time he moved his head. At the council table, Queen Cersei
shimmered in a cloth-of-gold gown slashed in burgundy velvet, while beside her Varys fussed and
simpered in a lilac brocade. Moon Boy and Ser Dontos wore new suits of motley, clean as a spring
morning. Even Lady Tanda and her daughters looked pretty in matching gowns of turquoise silk and vair,
and Lord Gyles was coughing into a square of scarlet silk trimmed with golden lace. King Joffrey sat
above them all, amongst the blades and barbs of the Iron Throne. He was in crimson samite, his black
mantle studded with rubies, on his head his heavy golden crown.
Squirming through a press of knights, squires, and rich townfolk, Sansa reached the front of the gallery
just as a blast of trumpets announced the entry of Lord Tywin Lannister.
He rode his warhorse down the length of the hall and dismounted before the Iron Throne. Sansa had
never seen such armor; all burnished red steel, inlaid with golden scrollwork and ornamentation. His
rondels were sunbursts, the roaring lion that crowned his helm had ruby eyes,


and a lioness on each shoulder fastened a cloth-of-gold cloak so long and heavy that it draped the
hindquarters of his charger. Even the horse's armor was gilded, and his bardings were shimmering
crimson silk emblazoned with the lion of Lannister.
The Lord of Casterly Rock made such an impressive figure that it was a shock when his destrier
dropped a load of dung right at the base of the throne. Joffrey had to step gingerly around it as he
descended to embrace his grandfather and proclaim him Savior of the City. Sansa covered her mouth to
hide a nervous smile.
Joff made a show of asking his grandfather to assume governance of the realm, and Lord Tywin
solemnly accepted the responsibility, "until Your Grace does come of age." Then squires removed his
armor and Joff fastened the Hand's chain of office around his neck. Lord Tywin took a seat at the council
table beside the queen. After the destrier was led off and his homage removed, Cersei nodded for the
ceremonies to continue.
A fanfare of brazen trumpets greeted each of the heroes as he stepped between the great oaken doors.
Heralds cried his name and deeds for all to hear, and the noble knights and highborn ladies cheered as
lustily as cutthroats at a cockfight. Pride of place was given to Mace Tyrell, the Lord of Highgarden, a
once-powerful man gone to fat, yet still handsome. His sons followed him in; Ser Loras and his older
brother Ser Garlan the Gallant. The three dressed alike, in green velvet trimmed with sable.
The king descended the throne once more to greet them, a great honor. He fastened about the throat of
each a chain of roses wrought in soft yellow gold, from which hung a golden disc with the lion of
Lannister picked out in rubies. "The roses support the lion, as the might of Highgarden supports the
realm," proclaimed Joffrey. "If there is any boon you would ask of me, ask and it shall be yours."
And now it comes, thought Sansa.
"Your Grace," said Ser Loras, "I beg the honor of serving in your Kingsguard, to defend you against
your enemies."
Joffrey drew the Knight of Flowers to his feet and kissed him on his cheek. "Done, brother."
Lord Tyrell bowed his head. "There is no greater pleasure than to serve the King's Grace. If I was
deemed worthy to join your royal council, you would find none more loyal or true."
Joff put a hand on Lord Tyrell's shoulder and kissed him when he stood. "Your wish is granted."
Ser Garlan Tyrell, five years senior to Ser Loras, was a taller bearded version of his more famous
younger brother. He was thicker about the chest and broader at the shoulders, and though his face was
comely enough, he lacked Ser Loras's startling beauty. "Your Grace," Garlan said when the king
approached him, "I have a maiden sister, Margaery, the
delight of our House. She was wed to Renly Baratheon, as you know, but Lord Renly went to war
before the marriage could be consummated, so she remains innocent. Margaery has heard tales of your
wisdom, courage, and chivalry, and has come to love you from afar. I beseech you to send for her, to
take her hand in marriage, and to wed your House to mine for all time."
King Joffrey made a show of looking surprised. "Ser Garlan, your sister's beauty is famed throughout the
Seven Kingdoms, but I am promised to another. A king must keep his word."


Queen Cersei got to her feet in a rustle of skirts. "Your Grace, in the judgment of your small council, it
would be neither proper nor wise for you to wed the daughter of a man beheaded for treason, a girl
whose brother is in open rebellion against the throne even now. Sire, your councillors beg you, for the
good of your realm, set Sansa Stark aside. The Lady Margaery will make you a far more suitable
queen."
Like a pack of trained dogs, the lords and ladies in the hall began to shout their pleasure. "Margaery,"
they called. "Give us Margaery!" and "No traitor queens! Tyrell! Tyrell!"
Joffrey raised a hand. "I would like to heed the wishes of my people, Mother, but I took a holy vow."
The High Septon stepped forward. "Your Grace, the gods hold bethrothal solemn, but your father, King
Robert of blessed memory, made this pact before the Starks of Winterfell had revealed their falseness.
Their crimes against the realm have freed you from any promise you might have made. So far as the Faith
is concerned, there is no valid marriage contract 'twixt you and Sansa Stark."
A tumult of cheering filled the throne room, and cries of "Margaery, Margaery" erupted all around her.
Sansa leaned forward, her hands tight around the gallery's wooden rail. She knew what came next, but
she was still frightened of what Joffrey might say, afraid that he would refuse to release her even now,
when his whole kingdom depended upon it. She felt as if she were back again on the marble steps
outside the Great Sept of Baelor, waiting for her prince to grant her father mercy, and instead hearing him
command Ilyn Payne to strike off his head. Please, she prayed fervently, make him say it, make him say
it.
Lord Tywin was looking at his grandson. Joff gave him a sullen glance, shifted his feet, and helped Ser
Garlan Tyrell to rise. "The gods are good. I am free to heed my heart. I will wed your sweet sister, and
gladly, ser." He kissed Ser Garlan on a bearded cheek as the cheers rose all around them.
Sansa felt curiously light-headed. I am free. She could feel eyes upon her. I must not smile, she reminded
herself. The queen had warned her; no matter what she felt inside, the face she showed the world must
look
distraught. "I will not have my son humiliated," Cersei said. "Do you hear me?"
"Yes. But if I'm not to be queen, what will become of me?"
"That will need to be determined. For the moment, you shall remain here at court, as our ward."
"I want to go home."
The queen was irritated by that. "You should have learned by now, none of us get the things we want."
I have, though, Sansa thought. I am free of Joffrey. I will not have to kiss him, nor give him my
maidenhood, nor bear him children. Let Margaery Yyrell have all that, poor girl.
By the time the outburst died down, the Lord of Highgarden had been seated at the council table, and
his sons had joined the other knights and lordlings beneath the windows. Sansa tried to look forlorn and
abandoned as other heroes of the Battle of the Blackwater were summoned forth to receive their
rewards.


Paxter Redwyne, Lord of the Arbor, marched down the length of the hall flanked by his twin sons
Horror and Slobber, the former limping from a wound taken in the battle. After them followed Lord
Mathis Rowan in a snowy doublet with a great tree worked upon the breast in gold thread; Lord Randyll
Tarly, lean and balding, a greatsword across his back in a jeweled scabbard; Ser Kevan Lannister, a
thickset balding man with a close-trimmed beard; Ser Addam Marbrand, coppery hair streaming to his
shoulders; the great western lords Lydden, Crakehall, and Brax.
Next came four of lesser birth who had distinguished themselves in the fighting: the one-eyed knight Ser
Philip Foote, who had slain Lord Bryce Caron in single combat; the freerider Lothor Brune, who'd cut
his way through half a hundred Fossoway men-at-arms to capture Ser Jon of the green apple and kill Ser
Bryan and Ser Edwyd of the red, thereby winning himself the name Lothor Apple-Eater; Willit, a grizzled
man-atarms in the service of Ser Harys Swyft, who'd pulled his master from beneath his dying horse and
defended him against a dozen attackers; and a downycheeked squire named Josmyn Peckledon, who
had killed two knights, wounded a third, and captured two more, though he could not have been more
than fourteen. Willit was borne in on a litter, so grievous were his wounds.
Ser Kevan had taken a seat beside his brother Lord Tywin. When the heralds had finished telling of each
hero's deeds, he rose. "It is His Grace's wish that these good men be rewarded for their valor. By his
decree, Ser Philip shall henceforth be Lord Philip of House Foote, and to him shall go all the lands, rights,
and incomes of House Caron. Lothor Brune to be raised to the estate of knighthood, and granted land
and keep in the riverlands at war's end. To Josmyn Peckledon, a sword and suit of
plate, his choice of any warhorse in the royal stables, and knighthood as soon as he shall come of age.
And lastly, for Goodman Willit, a spear with a silver-banded haft, a hauberk of new-forged ringmail, and
a full helm with visor. Further, the goodman's sons shall be taken into the service of House Lannister at
Casterly Rock, the elder as a squire and the younger as a page, with the chance to advance to
knighthood if they serve loyally and well. To all this, the King's Hand and the small council consent."
The captains of the king's warships Wildwind, Prince Aemon, and River Arrow were honored next,
along with some under officers from Godsgrace, Lance, Lady of Silk, and Ramshead. As near as Sansa
could tell, their chief accomplishment had been surviving the battle on the river, a feat that few enough
could boast. Hallyne the Pyromancer and the masters of the Alchemists' Guild received the king's thanks
as well, and Hallyne was raised to the style of lord, though Sansa noted that neither lands nor castle
accompanied the title, which made the alchemist no more a true lord than Varys was. A more significant
lordship by far was granted to Ser Lancel Lannister. Joffrey awarded him the lands, castle, and rights of
House Darry, whose last child lord had perished during the fighting in the riverlands, "leaving no trueborn
heirs of lawful Darry blood, but only a bastard cousin."
Ser Lancel did not appear to accept the title; the talk was, his wound might cost him his arm or even his
life. The Imp was said to be dying as well, from a terrible cut to the head.
When the herald called, "Lord Petyr Baelish," he came forth dressed all in shades of rose and plum, his
cloak patterned with mockingbirds. She could see him smiling as he knelt before the Iron Throne. He
looks so pleased. Sansa had not heard of Littlefinger doing anything especially heroic during the battle,
but it seemed he was to be rewarded all the same.
Ser Kevan got back to his feet. "It is the wish of the King's Grace that his loyal councillor Petyr Baelish
be rewarded for faithful service to crown and realm. Be it known that Lord Baelish is granted the castle
of Harrenhal with all its attendant lands and incomes, there to make his seat and rule henceforth as Lord
Paramount of the Trident. Petyr Baelish and his sons and grandsons shall hold and enjoy these honors
until the end of time, and all the lords of the Trident shall do him homage as their rightful liege. The King's


Hand and the small council consent."
On his knees, Littlefinger raised his eyes to King Joffrey. "I thank you humbly, Your Grace. I suppose
this means I'll need to see about getting some sons and grandsons."
Joffrey laughed, and the court with him. Lord Paramount of the Trident, Sansa thought, and Lord of
Harrenhal as well. She did not understand
why that should make him so happy; the honors were as empty as the title granted to Hallyne the
Pyromancer. Harrenhal was cursed, everyone knew that, and the Lannisters did not even hold it at
present. Besides, the lords of the Trident were sworn to Riverrun and House Tully, and to the King in the
North; they would never accept Littlefinger as their liege. Unless they are made to. Unless my brother
and my uncle and my grandfather are all cast down and killed. The thought made Sansa anxious, but she
told herself she was being silly. Robb has beaten them every time. He'll beat Lord Baelish too, if he must.
More than six hundred new knights were made that day. They had held their vigil in the Great Sept of
Baelor all through the night and crossed the city barefoot that morning to prove their humble hearts. Now
they came forward dressed in shifts of undyed wool to receive their knighthoods from the Kingsguard. It
took a long time, since only three of the Brothers of the White Sword were on hand to dub them.
Mandon Moore had perished in the battle, the Hound had vanished, Aerys Oakheart was in Dorne with
Princess Myrcella, and Jaime Lannister was Robb's captive, so the Kingsguard had been reduced to
Balon Swann, Meryn Trant, and Osmund Kettleblack. Once knighted, each man rose, buckled on his
swordbelt, and stood beneath the windows. Some had bloody feet from their walk through the city, but
they stood tall and proud all the same, it seemed to Sansa.
By the time all the new knights had been given their sers the hall was growing restive, and none more so
than Joffrey. Some of those in the gallery had begun to slip quietly away, but the notables on the floor
were trapped, unable to depart without the king's leave. judging by the way he was fidgeting atop the
Iron Throne, Joff would willingly have granted it, but the day's work was far from done. For now the coin
was turned over, and the captives were ushered in.
There were great lords and noble knights in that company too: sour old Lord Celtigar, the Red Crab;
Ser Bonifer the Good; Lord Estermont, more ancient even than Celtigar; Lord Varner, who hobbled the
length of the hall on a shattered knee, but would accept no help; Ser Mark Mullendore, grey-faced, his
left arm gone to the elbow; fierce Red Ronnet of Griffin Roost; Ser Dermot of the Rainwood; Lord
Willurn and his sons josua and Elyas; Ser Jon Fossoway; Ser Timon the Scrapesword; Aurane, the
bastard of Driftmark; Lord Staedmon, called Pennylover; hundreds of others.
Those who had changed their allegiance during the battle needed only to swear fealty to Joffrey, but the
ones who had fought for Stannis until the bitter end were compelled to speak. Their words decided their
fate. if they begged forgiveness for their treasons and promised to serve loyally
henceforth, Joffrey welcomed them back into the king's peace and restored them to all their lands and
rights. A handful remained defiant, however. "Do not imagine this is done, boy," warned one, the bastard
son of some Florent or other. "The Lord of Light protects King Stannis, now and always. All your
swords and all your scheming shall not save you when his hour comes."
"Your hour is come right now." Joffrey beckoned to Ser Ilyn Payne to take the man out and strike his
head off. But no sooner had that one been dragged away than a knight of solemn mien with a fiery heart
on his surcoat shouted out, "Stannis is the true king! A monster sits the Iron Throne, an abomination born
of incest!"


"Be silent," Ser Kevan Lannister bellowed.
The knight raised his voice instead. "Joffrey is the black worm eating the heart of the realm! Darkness
was his father, and death his mother! Destroy him before he corrupts you all! Destroy them all, queen
whore and king worm, vile dwarf and whispering spider, the false flowers. Save yourselves!" One of the
gold cloaks knocked the man off his feet, but he continued to shout. "The scouring fire will come! King
Stannis will return! "
Joffrey lurched to his feet. "I'm king! Kill him! Kill him now! I command it." He chopped down with his
hand, a furious, angry gesture . . . and screeched in pain when his arm brushed against one of the sharp
metal fangs that surrounded him. The bright crimson samite of his sleeve turned a darker shade of red as
his blood soaked through it. "Mother!" he wailed.
With every eye on the king, somehow the man on the floor wrested a spear away from one of the gold
cloaks, and used it to push himself back to his feet. "The throne denies him!" he cried. "He is no king!"
Cersei was running toward the throne, but Lord Tywin remained still as stone. He had only to raise a
finger, and Ser Meryn Trant moved forward with drawn sword. The end was quick and brutal. The gold
cloaks seized the knight by the arms. "No king!" he cried again as Ser Meryn drove the point of his
longsword through his chest.
Joff fell into his mother's arms. Three maesters came hurrying forward, to bundle him out through the
king's door. Then everyone began talking at once. When the gold cloaks dragged off the dead man, he
left a trail of bright blood across the stone floor. Lord Baelish stroked his beard while Varys whispered in
his ear. Will they dismiss us now~ Sansa wondered. A score of captives still waited, though whether to
pledge fealty or shout curses, who could say?
Lord Tywin rose to his feet. "We continue," he said in a clear strong voice that silenced the murmurs.
"Those who wish to ask pardon for
their treasons may do so. We will have no more follies." He moved to the Iron Throne and there seated
himself on a step, a mere three feet off the floor.
The light outside the windows was fading by the time the session drew to a close. Sansa felt limp with
exhaustion as she made her way down from the gallery. She wondered how badly Joffrey had cut
himself. They say the Iron Throne can be perilous cruel to those who were not meant to sit it.
Back in the safety of her own chambers, she hugged a pillow to her face to muffle a squeal of joy. Oh,
gods be good, he did it, he put me aside in front of everyone. When a serving girl brought her supper, she
almost kissed her. There was hot bread and fresh-churned butter, a thick beef soup, capon and carrots,
and peaches in honey. Even the food tastes sweeter, she thought.
Come dark, she slipped into a cloak and left for the godswood. Ser Osmund Kettleblack was guarding
the drawbridge in his white armor. Sansa tried her best to sound miserable as she bid him a good
evening. From the way he leered at her, she was not sure she had been wholly convincing.
Dontos waited in the leafy moonlight. "Why so sadface?" Sansa asked him gaily. "You were there, you
heard. Joff put me aside, he's done with me, he's . . . "
He took her hand. "Oh, Jonquil, my poor Jonquil, you do not understand. Done with you? They've


scarcely begun."
Her heart sank. "What do you mean?"
"The queen will never let you go, never. You are too valuable a hostage. And Joffrey . . . sweetling, he is
still king. If he wants you in his bed, he will have you, only now it will be bastards he plants in your womb
instead of trueborn sons."
"No," Sansa said, shocked. "He let me go, he
Ser Dontos planted a slobbery kiss on her ear. "Be brave. I swore to see you home, and now I can. The
day has been chosen."
"When?" Sansa asked. "When will we go?"
"The night of Joffrey's wedding. After the feast. All the necessary arrangements have been made. The
Red Keep will be full of strangers. Half the court will be drunk and the other half will be helping Joffrey
bed his bride. For a little while, you will be forgotten, and the confusion will be our friend."
"The wedding won't be for a moon's turn yet. Margaery Tyrell is at Highgarden, they've only now sent
for her."
"You've waited so long, be patient awhile longer. Here, I have something for you." Ser Dontos fumbled
in his pouch and drew out a silvery spiderweb, dangling it between his thick fingers.
it was a hair net of fine-spun silver, the strands so thin and delicate the net seemed to weigh no more
than a breath of air when Sansa took it in her fingers. Small gems were set wherever two strands
crossed, so dark they drank the moonlight. "What stones are these?"
"Black amethysts from Asshai. The rarest kind, a deep true purple by daylight."
"It's very lovely," Sansa said, thinking, It is a ship I need, not a net for my hair.
"Lovelier than you know, sweet child. It's magic, you see. It's justice you hold. It's vengeance for your
father." Dontos leaned close and kissed her again. "It's home."
CHAPTER 65
THEON
Maester Luwin came to him when the first scouts were seen
Loutside the walls. "My lord prince," he said, "you must yield."
Theon stared at the platter of oakcakes, honey, and blood sausage they'd brought him to break his fast.
Another sleepless night had left his nerves raw, and the very sight of food sickened him. "There has been
no reply from my uncle?"


"None," the maester said. "Nor from your father on Pyke."
"Send more birds."
"It will not serve. By the time the birds reach-"
"Send them!" Knocking the platter of food aside with a swipe of his arm, he pushed off the blankets and
rose from Ned Stark's bed naked and angry. "Or do you want me dead? Is that it, Luwin? The truth
now."
The small grey man was unafraid. "My order serves."
"Yes, but whom?"
"The realm," Maester Luwin said, "and Winterfell. Theon, once I taught you sums and letters, history and
warcraft. And might have taught you more, had you wished to learn. I will not claim to bear you any great
love, no, but I cannot hate you either. Even if I did, so long as you hold Winterfell I am bound by oath to
give you counsel. So now I counsel you to yield."
Theon stooped to scoop a puddled cloak off the floor, shook off the
rushes, and draped it over his shoulders. A fire, I'll have a fire, and clean garb. Where's Wex? I'll not po
to my grave in dirty clothes.
"You have no hope of holding here," the maester went on. "If your lord father meant to send you aid, he
would have done so by now. It is the Neck that concerns him. The battle for the north will be fought
amidst the ruins of Moat Cailin."
"That may be so," said Theon. "And so long as I hold Winterfell, Ser Rodrik and Stark's lords
bannermen cannot march south to take my uncle in the rear." I am not so innocent of warcraft as you
think, old man. "I have food enough to stand a year's siege, if need be."
"There will be no siege. Perhaps they will spend a day or two fashioning ladders and tying grapnels to
the ends of ropes. But soon enough they will come over your walls in a hundred places at once. You may
be able to hold the keep for a time, but the castle will fall within the hour. You would do better to open
your gates and ask for mercy? I know what kind of mercy they have for me."
"There is a way."
"I am ironborn," Theon reminded him. "I have my own way. What choice have they left me? No, don't
answer, I've heard enough of your counsel. Go and send those birds as I commanded, and tell Lorren I
want to see him. And Wex as well. I'll have my mail scoured clean, and my garrison assembled in the
yard."
For a moment he thought the maester was going to defy him. But finally Luwin bowed stiffly. "As you
command."
They made a pitifully small assembly; the ironmen were few, the yard large. "The northmen will be on us
before nightfall," he told them. "Ser Rodrik Cassel and all the lords who have come to his call. I will not
run from them. I took this castle and I mean to hold it, to live or die as Prince of Winterfell. But I will not


command any man to die with me. If you leave now, before Ser Rodrik's main force is upon us, there's
still a chance you may win free." He unsheathed his longsword and drew a line in the dirt. "Those who
would stay and fight, step forward."
No one spoke. The men stood in their mail and fur and boiled leather, as still as if they were made of
stone. A few exchanged looks. Urzen shuffled his feet. Dykk Harlaw hawked and spat. A finger of wind
ruffled Endehar's long fair hair.
Theon felt as though he were drowning. Why am I surprised? he thought bleakly. His father had
forsaken him, his uncles, his sister, even that wretched creature Reek. Why should his men prove any
more loyal? There was nothing to say, nothing to do. He could only stand there beneath the great grey
walls and the hard white sky, sword in hand, waiting, waiting . . .
Wex was the first to cross the line. Three quick steps and he stood at Theon's side, slouching. Shamed
by the boy, Black Lorren followed, all scowls. "Who else?" he demanded. Red Rolfe came forward.
Kromm. Werlag. Tymor and his brothers. Ulf the Ill. Harrag Sheepstealer. Four Harlaws and two
Botleys. Kenned the Whale was the last. Seventeen in all.
Urzen was among those who did not move, and Stygg, and every man of the ten that Asha had brought
from Deepwood Motte. "Go, then," Theon told them. "Run to my sister. She'll give you all a warm
welcome, I have no doubt."
Stygg had the grace at least to look ashamed. The rest moved off without a word. Theon turned to the
seventeen who remained. "Back to the walls. If the gods should spare us, I shall remember every man of
you."
Black Lorren stayed when the others had gone. "The castle folk will turn on us soon as the fight begins."
"I know that. What would you have me do?"
"Put them out," said Lorren. "Every one."
Theon shook his head. "Is the noose ready?"
"It is. You mean to use it?"
"Do you know a better way?"
"Aye. I'll take my axe and stand on that drawbridge, and let them come try me. One at a time, two,
three, it makes no matter. None will pass the moat while I still draw breath."
He means to die, thought Theon. It's not victory he wants, it's an end worthy of a song. "We'll use the
noose."
"As you say," Lorren replied, contempt in his eyes.
Wex helped garb him for battle. Beneath his black surcoat and golden mantle was a shirt of well-oiled
ringmail, and under that a layer of stiff boiled leather. Once armed and armored, Theon climbed the
watchtower at the angle where the eastern and southern walls came together to have a look at his doom.
The northmen were spreading out to encircle the castle. It was hard to judge their numbers. A thousand
at least; perhaps twice that many. Against seventeen. They'd brought catapults and scorpions. He saw no


siege towers rumbling up the kingsroad, but there was timber enough in the wolfswood to build as many
as were required.
Theon studied their banners through Maester Luwin's Myrish lens tube. The Cerwyn battle-axe flapped
bravely wherever he looked, and there were Tallhart trees as well, and mermen from White Harbor. Less
common were the sigils of Flint and Karstark. Here and there he even saw the bull moose of the
Hornwoods. But no Glovers, Asha saw to them, no Boltons from the Dreadfort, no Umbers come down
from the shadow of the Wall. Not that they were needed. Soon enough the boy Cley Cerwyn appeared
before the gates carrying a peace banner on a tall
staff, to announce that Ser Rodrik Cassel wished to parley with Theon Turncloak.
Turncloak. The name was bitter as bile. He had gone to Pyke to lead his father's longships against
Lannisport, he remembered. "I shall be out shortly," he shouted down. "Alone."
Black Lorren disapproved. "Only blood can wash out blood," he declared. "Knights may keep their
truces with other knights, but they are not so careful of their honor when dealing with those they deem
outlaw."
Theon bristled. "I am the Prince of Winterfell and heir to the Iron Islands. Now go find the girl and do as
I told you."
Black Lorren gave him a murderous look. "Aye, Prince."
He's turned against me too, Theon realized. Of late it seemed to him as if the very stones of Winterfell
had turned against him. If I die, I die friendless and abandoned. What choice did that leave him, but to
live?
He rode to the gatehouse with his crown on his head. A woman was drawing water from the well, and
Gage the cook stood in the door of the kitchens. They hid their hatred behind sullen looks and faces
blank as slate, yet he could feel it all the same.
When the drawbridge was lowered, a chill wind sighed across the moat. The touch of it made him
shiver. It is the cold, nothing more, Theon told himself, a shiver, not a tremble. Even brave men shiver.
Into the teeth of that wind he rode, under the portcullis, over the drawbridge. The outer gates swung
open to let him pass. As he emerged beneath the walls, he could sense the boys watching from the empty
sockets where their eyes had been.
Ser Rodrik waited in the market astride his dappled gelding. Beside him, the direwolf of Stark flapped
from a staff borne by young Cley Cerwyn. They were alone in the square, though Theon could see
archers on the roofs of surrounding houses, spearmen to his right, and to his left a line of mounted knights
beneath the merman-and-trident of House Manderly. Every one of them wants me dead. Some were
boys he'd drunk with, diced with, even wenched with, but that would not save him if he fell into their
hands.
"Ser Rodrik." Theon reined to a halt. "It grieves me that we must meet as foes."
"My own grief is that I must wait a while to hang you." The old knight spat onto the muddy ground.
"Theon Turncloak."
"I am a Greyjoy of Pyke," Theon reminded him. "The cloak my father swaddled me in bore a kraken,


not a direwolf."
"For ten years you have been a ward of Stark."
"Hostage and prisoner, I call it."
"Then perhaps Lord Eddard should have kept you chained to a
dungeon wall. Instead he raised you among his own sons, the sweet oys you have butchered, and to my
undying shame I trained you in the arts of war. Would that I had thrust a sword through your belly instead
of placing one in your hand."
"I came out to parley, not to suffer your insults. Say what you have to say, old man. What would you
have of me?"
"Two things," the old man said. "Winterfell, and your life. Command your men to open the gates and lay
down their arms. Those who murdered no children shall be free to walk away, but you shall be held for
King Robb's justice. May the gods take pity on you when he returns."
"Robb will never look on Winterfell again," Theon promised. "He will break himself on Moat Cailin, as
every southron army has done for ten thousand years. We hold the north now, ser."
"You hold three castles," replied Ser Rodrik, "and this one I mean to take back, Turncloak."
Theon ignored that. "Here are my terms. You have until evenfall to disperse. Those who swear fealty to
Balon Greyjoy as their king and to myself as Prince of Winterfell will be confirmed in their rights and
properties and suffer no harm. Those who defy us will be destroyed."
Young Cerwyn was incredulous. "Are you mad, Greyjoy?"
Ser Rodrik shook his head. "Only vain, lad. Theon has always had too lofty an opinion of himself, I
fear." The old man jabbed a finger at him. "Do not imagine that I need wait for Robb to fight his way up
the Neck to deal with the likes of you. I have near two thousand men with me . . . and if the tales be true,
you have no more than fifty."
Seventeen, in truth. Theon made himself smile. "I have something better than men." And he raised a fist
over his head, the signal Black Lorren had been told to watch for.
The walls of Winterfell were behind him, but Ser Rodrik faced them squarely and could not fail to see.
Theon watched his face. When his chin quivered under those stiff white whiskers, he knew just what the
old man was seeing. He is not surprised, he thought with sadness, but the fear is there.
"This is craven," Ser Rodrik said. "To use a child so . . . this is despicable."
"Oh, I know," said Theon. "It's a dish I tasted myself, or have you forgotten? I was ten when I was
taken from my father's house, to make certain he would raise no more rebellions."
"It is not the same!"
Theon's face was impassive. "The noose I wore was not made of hempen rope, that's true enough, but I
felt it all the same. And it chafed, Ser Rodrik. It chafed me raw." He had never quite realized that until


now, but as the words came spilling out he saw the truth of them.
"No harm was ever done you."
"And no harm will be done your Beth, so long as you-"
Ser Rodrik never gave him the chance to finish. "Viper," the knight declared, his face red with rage
beneath those white whiskers. "I gave you the chance to save your men and die with some small shred of
honor, Turncloak. I should have known that was too much to ask of a childkiller." His hand went to the
hilt of his sword. "I ought cut you down here and now and put an end to your lies and deceits. By the
gods, I should."
Theon did not fear a doddering old man, but those watching archers and that line of knights were a
different matter. If the swords came out his chances of getting back to the castle alive were small to none.
"Forswear your oath and murder me, and you will watch your little Beth strangle at the end of a rope."
Ser Rodrik's knuckles had gone white, but after a moment he took his hand off the swordhilt. "Truly, I
have lived too long."
"I will not disagree, ser. Will you accept my terms?"
"I have a duty to Lady Catelyn and House Stark."
"And your own House? Beth is the last of your blood."
The old knight drew himself up straight. "I offer myself in my daughter's place. Release her, and take me
as your hostage. Surely the castellan of Winterfell is worth more than a child."
"Not to me." A valiant gesture, old man, but I am not that great a fool. "Not to Lord Manderly or
Leobald Tallhart either, I'd wager." Your sorry old skin is worth no more to them than any other man's.
"No, I'll keep the girl . . . and keep her safe, so long as you do as I've commanded you. Her life is in your
hands."
"Gods be good, Theon, how can you do this? You know I must attack, have sworn . . . "
"If this host is still in arms before my gate when the sun sets, Beth will hang," said Theon. "Another
hostage will follow her to the grave at first light, and another at sunset. Every dawn and every dusk will
mean a death, until you are gone. I have no lack of hostages." He did not wait for a reply, but wheeled
Smiler around and rode back toward the castle. He went slowly at first, but the thought of those archers
at his back soon drove him to a canter. The small heads watched him come from their spikes, their tarred
and flayed faces looming larger with every yard; between them stood little Beth Cassel, noosed and
crying. Theon put his heel into Smiler and broke into a hard gallop. Smiler's hooves clattered on the
drawbridge, like drumbeats.
In the yard he dismounted and handed his reins to Wex. "It may stay them," he told Black Lorren. "We'll
know by sunset. Take the girl in till then, and keep her somewhere safe." Under the layers of leather,
steel,
and wool, he was slick with sweat. "I need a cup of wine. A vat of wine would do even better."
A fire had been laid in Ned Stark's bedchamber. Theon sat beside it and filled a cup with a


heavy-bodied red from the castle vaults, a wine as sour as his mood. They will attack, he thought
gloomily, staring at the flames. Ser Rodrik loves his daughter, but he is still castellan, and most of all a
knight. Had it been Theon with a noose around his neck and Lord Balon commanding the army without,
the warhorns would already have sounded the attack, he had no doubt. He should thank the gods that
Ser Rodrik was not ironborn. The men of the green lands were made of softer stuff, though he was not
certain they would prove soft enough.
If not, if the old man gave the command to storm the castle regardless, Winterfell would fall; Theon
entertained no delusions on that count. His seventeen might kill three, four, five times their own number,
but in the end they would be overwhelmed.
Theon stared at the flames over the rim of his wine goblet, brooding on the injustice of it all. "I rode
beside Robb Stark in the Whispering Wood," he muttered. He had been frightened that night, but not like
this. It was one thing to go into battle surrounded by friends, and another to perish alone and despised.
Mercy, he thought miserably.
When the wine brought no solace, Theon sent Wex to fetch his bow and took himself to the old inner
ward. There he stood, loosing shaft after shaft at the archery butts until his shoulders ached and his
fingers were bloody, pausing only long enough to pull the arrows from the targets for another round. I
saved Bran's life with this bow, he reminded himself. Would that I could save my own. Women came to
the well, but did not linger; whatever they saw on Theon's face sent them away quickly.
Behind him the broken tower stood, its summit as jagged as a crown where fire had collapsed the upper
stories long ago. As the sun moved, the shadow of the tower moved as well, gradually lengthening, a
black arm reaching out for Theon Greyjoy. By the time the sun touched the wall, he was in its grasp. If I
hang the girl, the northmen will attack at once, he thought as he loosed a shaft. If I do not hang her, they
will know my threats are empty. He knocked another arrow to his bow. There is no way out, none.
"If you had a hundred archers as good as yourself, you might have a chance to hold the castle," a voice
said softly.
When he turned, Maester Luwin was behind him. "Go away," Theon told him. "I have had enough of
your counsel."
"And life? Have you had enough of that, my lord prince?"
He raised the bow. "One more word and I'll put this shaft through your heart."
"You won't."
Theon bent the bow, drawing the grey goose feathers back to his cheek. "Care to make a wager?"
"I am your last hope, Theon."
I have no hope, he thought. Yet he lowered the bow half an inch and said, "I will not run."
"I do not speak of running. Take the black."
"The Night's Watch?" Theon let the bow unbend slowly and pointed the arrow at the ground.
"Ser Rodrik has served House Stark all his life, and House Stark has always been a friend to the Watch.


He will not deny you. Open your gates, lay down your arms, accept his terms, and he must let you take
the black."
A brother of the Night's Watch. It meant no crown, no sons, no wife . . . but it meant life, and life with
honor. Ned Stark's own brother had chosen the Watch, and Jon Snow as well.
I have black garb aplenty, once I tear the krakens off Even my horse is black. I could rise high in the
Watch-chief of rangers, likely even Lord Commander. Let Asha keep the bloody islands, they're as
dreary as she is. If I served at Eastwatch, I could command my own ship, and there's fine hunting beyond
the Wall. As for women, what wildling woman wouldn't want a prince in her bed? A slow smile crept
across his face, A black cloak can't be turned. I'd be as good as any man . . .
"PRINCE THEON!" The sudden shout shattered his daydream. Kromm was loping across the ward.
"The northmen-"
He felt a sudden sick sense of dread. "Is it the attack?"
Maester Luwin clutched his arm. "There's still time. Raise a peace banner-"
"They're fighting," Kromm said urgently. "More men came up, hundreds of them, and at first they made
to join the others. But now they've fallen on them!"
"Is it Asha?" Had she come to save him after all?
But Kromm gave a shake of his head. "No. These are northmen, I tell you. With a bloody man on their
banner."
The flayed man of the Dreadfort. Reek had belonged to the Bastard of Bolton before his capture, Theon
recalled. it was hard to believe that a vile creature like him could sway the Boltons to change their
allegiance, but nothing else made sense. "I'll see this for myself," Theon said.
Maester Luwin trailed after him. By the time they reached the battlements, dead men and dying horses
were strewn about the market square outside the gates. He saw no battle lines, only a swirling chaos of
banners and blades. Shouts and screams rang through the cold autumn air. Ser Rodrik seemed to have
the numbers, but the Dreadfort men were
better led, and had taken the others unawares. Theon watched them charge and wheel and charge again,
chopping the larger force to bloody pieces every time they tried to form up between the houses. He
could hear the crash of iron axeheads on oaken shields over the terrified trumpeting of a maimed horse.
The inn was burning, he saw.
Black Lorren appeared beside him and stood silently for a time. The sun was low in the west, painting
the fields and houses all a glowing red. A thin wavering cry of pain drifted over the walls, and a warhorn
sounded off beyond the burning houses. Theon watched a wounded man drag himself painfully across the
ground, smearing his life's blood in the dirt as he struggled to reach the well that stood at the center of the
market square. He died before he got there. He wore a leather jerkin and conical halfhelm, but no badge
to tell which side he'd fought on.
The crows came in the blue dust, with the evening stars. "The Dothraki believe the stars are spirits of the
valiant dead," Theon said. Maester Luwin had told him that, a long time ago.


"Dothraki?"
"The horselords across the narrow sea."
"Oh. Them." Black Lorren frowned through his beard. "Savages believe all manner of foolish things."
As the night grew darker and the smoke spread it was harder to make out what was happening below,
but the din of steel gradually diminished to nothing, and the shouts and warhorns gave way to moans and
piteous wailing. Finally a column of mounted men rode out of the drifting smoke. At their head was a
knight in dark armor. His rounded helm gleamed a sullen red, and a pale pink cloak streamed from his
shoulders. Outside the main gate he reined up, and one of his men shouted for the castle to open.
"Are you friend or foe?" Black Lorren bellowed down.
"Would a foe bring such fine gifts?" Red Helm waved a hand, and three corpses were dumped in front of
the gates. A torch was waved above the bodies, so the defenders upon the walls might see the faces of
the dead.
"The old castellan," said Black Lorren.
"With Leobald Tallhart and Cley Cerwyn." The boy lord had taken an arrow in the eye, and Ser Rodrik
had lost his left arm at the elbow. Maester Luwin gave a wordless cry of dismay, turned away from the
battlements, and fell to his knees sick.
"The great pig Manderly was too craven to leave White Harbor, or we would have brought him as well,"
shouted Red Helm.
I am saved, Theon thought. So why did he feel so empty? This was victory, sweet victory, the
deliverance he had prayed for. He glanced at
Maester Luwin. To think how close I came to yielding, and taking the black . . .
"Open the gates for our friends." Perhaps tonight Theon would sleep without fear of what his dreams
might bring.
The Dreadfort men made their way across the moat and through the inner gates. Theon descended with
Black Lorren and Maester Luwin to meet them in the yard. Pale red permons trailed from the ends of a
few lances, but many more carried battle-axes and greatswords and shields hacked half to splinters.
"How many men did you lose?" Theon asked Red Helm as he dismounted.
"Twenty or thirty." The torchlight glittered off the chipped enamel of his visor. His helm and gorget were
wrought in the shape of a man's face and shoulders, skinless and bloody, mouth open in a silent howl of
anguish.
"Ser Rodrik had you five-to-one."
"Aye, but he thought us friends. A common mistake. When the old fool gave me his hand, I took half his
arm instead. Then I let him see my face." The man put both hands to his helm and lifted it off his head,
holding it in the crook of his arm.
"Reek," Theon said, disquieted. How did a serving man get such fine armor?


The man laughed. "The wretch is dead." He stepped closer. "The girl's fault. If she had not run so far, his
horse would not have lamed, and we might have been able to flee. I gave him mine when I saw the riders
from the ridge. I was done with her by then, and he liked to take his turn while they were still warm. I had
to pull him off her and shove my clothes into his hands-calfskin boots and velvet doublet, silver-chased
swordbelt, even my sable cloak. Ride for the Dreadfort, I told him, bring all the help you can. Take my
horse, he's swifter, and here, wear the ring my father gave me, so they'll know you came from me. He'd
learned better than to question me. By the time they put that arrow through his back, I'd smeared myself
with the girl's filth and dressed in his rags. They might have hanged me anyway, but it was the only chance
I saw." He rubbed the back of his hand across his mouth. "And now, my sweet prince, there was a
woman promised me, if I brought two hundred men. Well, I brought three times as many, and no green
boys nor fieldhands neither, but my father's own garrison."
Theon had given his word. This was not the time to flinch. Pay him his pound of flesh and deal with him
later. "Harrag," he said, "go to the kennels and bring Palla out for . . . ?"
"Ramsay." There was a smile on his plump lips, but none in those pale pale eyes. "Snow, my wife called
me before she ate her fingers, but I
say Bolton." His smile curdled. "So you'd offer me a kennel girl for my good service, is that the way of
it?"
There was a tone in his voice Theon did not like, no more than he liked the insolent way the Dreadfort
men were looking at him. "She was what was promised."
"She smells of dogshit. I've had enough of bad smells, as it happens. I think I'll have your bedwarmer
instead. What do you call her? Kyra?"
"Are you mad?" Theon said angrily. "I'll have you-"
The Bastard's backhand caught him square, and his cheekbone shattered with a sickening crunch
beneath the lobstered steel. The world vanished in a red roar of pain.
Sometime later, Theon found himself on the ground. He rolled onto his stomach and swallowed a
mouthful of blood. Close the gates! he tried to shout, but it was too late. The Dreadfort men had cut
down Red Rolfe and Kenned, and more were pouring through, a river of mail and sharp swords. There
was a ringing in his ears, and horror all around him. Black Lorren had his sword out, but there were
already four of them pressing in on him. He saw Ulf go down with a crossbow bolt through the belly as
he ran for the Great Hall. Maester Luwin was trying to reach him when a knight on a warhorse planted a
spear between his shoulders, then swung back to ride over him. Another man whipped a torch round and
round his head and then lofted it toward the thatched roof of the stables. "Save me the Freys," the
Bastard was shouting as the flames roared upward, "and bum the rest. Bum it, burn it all."
The last thing Theon Greyjoy saw was Smiler, kicking free of the burning stables with his mane ablaze,
screaming, rearing . . .
CHAPTER 66
TYRION


he dreamed of a cracked stone ceiling and the smells of blood and shit and burnt flesh. The air was full
of acrid smoke. Men ere groaning and whimpering all around him, and from time to time a scream would
pierce the air, thick with pain. When he tried to move, he found that he had fouled his own bedding. The
smoke in the air made his eyes water. Am I crying? He must not let his father see. He was a Lannister of
Casterly Rock. A lion, I must be a lion, live a lion, die a lion. He hurt so much, though. Too weak to
groan, he lay in his own filth and shut his eyes. Nearby someone was cursing the gods in a heavy,
monotonous voice. He listened to the blasphemies and wondered if he was dying. After a time the room
faded.
He found himself outside the city, walking through a world without color. Ravens soared through a grey
sky on wide black wings, while carrion crows rose from their feasts in furious clouds wherever he set his
steps. White maggots burrowed through black corruption. The wolves were grey, and so were the silent
sisters; together they stripped the flesh from the fallen. There were corpses strewn all over the tourney
fields. The sun was a hot white penny, shining down upon the grey river as it rushed around the charred
bones of sunken ships. From the pyres of the dead rose black columns of smoke and white-hot ashes.
My work, thought Tyrion Lannister. They died at my command.
At first there was no sound in the world, but after a time he began to hear the voices of the dead, soft
and terrible. They wept and moaned,
they begged for an end to pain, they cried for help and wanted their mothers. Tyrion had never known
his mother. He wanted Shae, but she was not there. He walked alone amidst grey shadows, trying to
remember . . .
The silent sisters were stripping the dead men of their armor and clothes. All the bright dyes had leached
out from the surcoats of the slain; they were garbed in shades of white and grey, and their blood was
black and crusty. He watched their naked bodies lifted by arm and leg, to be carried swinging to the
pyres to join their fellows. Metal and cloth were thrown in the back of a white wooden wagon, pulled by
two tall black horses.
So many dead, so very many. Their corpses hung limply, their faces slack or stiff or swollen with gas,
unrecognizable, hardly human. The garments the sisters took from them were decorated with black
hearts, grey lions, dead flowers, and pale ghostly stags. Their armor was all dented and gashed, the
chainmail riven, broken, slashed. Why did I kill them all? He had known once, but somehow he had
forgotten.
He would have asked one of the silent sisters, but when he tried to speak he found he had no mouth.
Smooth seamless skin covered his teeth. The discovery terrified him. How could he live without a mouth?
He began to run. The city was not far. He would be safe inside the city, away from all these dead. He did
not belong with the dead. He had no mouth, but he was still a living man. No, a lion, a lion, and alive. But
when he reached the city walls, the gates were shut against him.
It was dark when he woke again. At first he could see nothing, but after a time the vague outlines of a
bed appeared around him. The drapes were drawn, but he could see the shape of carved bedposts, and
the droop of the velvet canopy over his head. Under him was the yielding softness of a featherbed, and
the pillow beneath his head was goose down. My own bed, I am in my own bed, in my own
bedchamber.


It was warm inside the drapes, under the great heap of furs and blankets that covered him. He was
sweating. Fever, he thought groggily. He felt so weak, and the pain stabbed through him when he
struggled to lift his hand. He gave up the effort. His head felt enormous, as big as the bed, too heavy to
raise from the pillow. His body he could scarcely feel at all. How did I come here? He tried to
remember. The battle came back in fits and flashes. The fight along the river, the knight who'd offered up
his gauntlet, the bridge of ships . . .
Ser Mandon. He saw the dead empty eyes, the reaching hand, the green fire shining against the white
enamel plate. Fear swept over him in a cold rush; beneath the sheets he could feel his bladder letting go.
He would have cried out, if he'd had a mouth. No, that was the dream, he
thought, his head pounding. Help me, someone help me. Jaime, Shae, Mother, someone ... 7~sha ...
No one heard. No one came. Alone in the dark, he fell back into pissscented sleep. He dreamed his
sister was standing over his bed, with their lord father beside her, frowning. It had to be a dream, since
Lord Tywin was a thousand leagues away, fighting Robb Stark in the west. Others came and went as
well. Varys looked down on him and sighed, but Littlefinger made a quip. Bloody treacherous bastard,
Tyrion thought venomously, we sent you to Bitterbridge and you never came back. Sometimes he could
hear them talking to one another, but he did not understand the words. Their voices buzzed in his ears
like wasps muffled in thick felt.
He wanted to ask if they'd won the battle. We must have, else I'd be a head on a spike somewhere. If I
live, we won. He did not know what pleased him more: the victory, or the fact he had been able to
reason it out. His wits were coming back to him, however slowly. That was good. His wits were all he
had.
The next time he woke, the draperies had been pulled back, and Podrick Payne stood over him with a
candle. When he saw Tyrion open his eyes he ran off. No, don't go, help me, help, he tried to call, but
the best he could do was a muffled moan. I have no mouth. He raised a hand to his face, his every
movement pained and fumbling. His fingers found stiff cloth where they should have found flesh, lips,
teeth. Linen. The lower half of his face was bandaged tightly, a mask of hardened plaster with holes for
breathing and feeding.
A short while later Pod reappeared. This time a stranger was with him, a maester chained and robed.
"My lord, you must be still," the man murmured. "You are grievous hurt. You will do yourself great injury.
Are you thirsty? "
He managed an awkward nod. The maester inserted a curved copper funnel through the feeding hole
over his mouth and poured a slow trickle down his throat. Tyrion swallowed, scarcely tasting. Too late
he realized the liquid was milk of the poppy. By the time the maester removed the funnel from his mouth,
he was already spiraling back to sleep.
This time he dreamed he was at a feast, a victory feast in some great hall. He had a high seat on the dais,
and men were lifting their goblets and hailing him as hero. Marillion was there, the singer who'd journeyed
with them through the Mountains of the Moon. He played his woodharp and sang of the imp's daring
deeds. Even his father was smiling with approval. When the song was over, Jaime rose from his place,
commanded Tyrion to kneel, and touched him first on one shoulder and then on the other with his golden
sword, and he rose up a knight. Shae was
waiting to embrace him. She took him by the hand, laughing and teasing, calling him her giant of
Lannister.


He woke in darkness to a cold empty room. The draperies had been drawn again. Something felt
wrong, turned around, though he could not have said what. He was alone once more. Pushing back the
blankets, he tried to sit, but the pain was too much and he soon subsided, breathing raggedly. His face
was the least part of it. His right side was one huge ache, and a stab of pain went through his chest
whenever he lifted his arm. What's happened to me? Even the battle seemed half a dream when he tried
to think back on it. I was hurt more badly than I knew Ser Mandon . . .
The memory frightened him, but Tyrion made himself hold it, turn it in his head, stare at it hard. He tried
to kill me, no mistake. That part was not a dream. He would have cut me in half if Pod had not . . . Pod,
where's Pod?
Gritting his teeth, he grabbed hold of the bed hangings and yanked. The drapes ripped free of the
canopy overhead and tumbled down, half on the rushes and half on him. Even that small effort had
dizzied him. The room whirled around him, all bare walls and dark shadows, with a single narrow
window. He saw a chest he'd owned, an untidy pile of his clothing, his battered armor. This is not my
bedchamber, he realized. Not even the Tower of the Hand. Someone had moved him. His shout of anger
came out as a muffled moan. They have moved me here to die, he thought as he gave up the struggle and
closed his eyes once more. The room was dank and cold, and he was burning.
He dreamed of a better place, a snug little cottage by the sunset sea. The walls were lopsided and
cracked and the floor had been made of packed earth, but he had always been warm there, even when
they let the fire go out. She used to tease me about that, he remembered. I never thought to feed the fire,
that had always been a servant's task. "We have no servants," she would remind me, and I would say,
"You have me, I'm your servant," and she would say, "A lazy servant. What do they do with lazy servants
in Casterly Rock, my lord?" and he would tell her, "They kiss them." That would always make her giggle.
"They do not neither. They beat them, I bet," she would say, but he would insist, "No, they kiss them, just
like this." He would show her how. "They kiss their fingers first, every one, and they kiss their wrists, yes,
and inside their elbows. Then they kiss their funny ears, all our servants have funny ears. Stop laughing!
And they kiss their cheeks and they kiss their noses with the little bump in them, there, so, like that, and
they kiss their sweet brows and their hair and their lips, their . . . mmmm . . . mouths . . . so . . ."
They would kiss for hours, and spend whole days doing no more than
lolling in bed, listening to the waves, and touching each other. Her body was a wonder to him, and she
seemed to find delight in his. Sometimes she would sing to him. I loved a maid as fair as summer, with
sunlight in her hair. "I love you, Tyrion," she would whisper before they went to sleep at night. "I love
your lips. I love your voice, and the words you say to me, and how you treat me gentle. I love your face."
"My face?"
"Yes. Yes. I love your hands, and how you touch me. Your cock, I love your cock, I love how it feels
when it's in me."
"It loves you too, my lady."
"I love to say your name. Tyrion Lannister. It goes with mine. Not the Lannister, Vother part. Tyrion and
Tysha. Tysha and Tyrion. Tyrion. My lord Tyrion . . ."
Lies, he thought, all feigned, all for gold, she was a whore, Jaime's whore, Jaime's gift, my lady of the lie.
Her face seemed to fade away, dissolving behind a veil of tears, but even after she was gone he could still


hear the faint, far-off sound of her voice, calling his name. my lord, can you hear me? My lord? Tyrion?
My lord? My lord?"
Through a haze of poppied sleep, he saw a soft pink face leaning over him. He was back in the dank
room with the torn bed hangings, and the face was wrong, not hers, too round, with a brown fringe of
beard. "Do you thirst, my lord? I have your milk, your good milk. You must not fight, no, don't try to
move, you need your rest." He had the copper funnel in one damp pink hand and a flask in the other.
As the man leaned close, Tyrion's fingers slid underneath his chain of many metals, grabbed, pulled. The
maester dropped the flask, spilling milk of the poppy all over the blanket. Tyrion twisted until he could
feel the links digging into the flesh of the man's fat neck. "No. More, " he croaked, so hoarse he was not
certain he had even spoken. But he must have, for the maester choked out a reply. "Unhand, please, my
lord . . . need your milk, the pain . . . the chain, don't, unhand, no . . ."
The pink face was beginning to purple when Tyrion let go. The maester reeled back, sucking in air. His
reddened throat showed deep white gouges where the links had pressed. His eyes were white too.
Tyrion raised a hand to his face and made a ripping motion over the hardened mask. And again. And
again.
"You . . . you want the bandages off, is that it?" the maester said at last. "But I'm not to . . . that would
be . . . be most unwise, my lord. You are not yet healed, the queen would . . ."
The mention of his sister made Tyrion growl. Are you one of hers, then? He pointed a finger at the
maester, then coiled his hand into a fist. Crushing, choking, a promise, unless the fool did as he was bid.
Thankfully, he understood. "I . . . I will do as my lord commands, to be sure, but . . . this is unwise, your
wounds
"Do. It." Louder that time.
Bowing, the man left the room, only to return a few moments later, bearing a long knife with a slender
sawtooth blade, a basin of water, a pile of soft cloths, and several flasks. By then Tyrion had managed to
squirm backward a few inches, so he was half sitting against his pillow. The maester bade him be very
still as he slid the tip of the knife in under his chin, beneath the mask. A slip of the hand here, and Cersei
will be free of me, he thought. He could feel the blade sawing through the stiffened linen, only inches
above his throat.
Fortunately this soft pink man was not one of his sister's braver creatures. After a moment he felt cool air
on his cheeks. There was pain as well, but he did his best to ignore that. The maester discarded the
bandages, still crusty with potion. "Be still now, I must wash out the wound." His touch was gentle, the
water warm and soothing. The wound, Tyrion thought, remembering a sudden flash of bright silver that
seemed to pass just below his eyes. "This is like to sting some," the maester warned as he wet a cloth
with wine that smelled of crushed herbs. It did more than sting. It traced a line of fire all the way across
Tyrion's face, and twisted a burning poker up his nose. His fingers clawed the bedclothes and he sucked
in his breath, but somehow he managed not to scream. The maester was clucking like an old hen. "It
would have been wiser to leave the mask in place until the flesh had knit, my lord. Still, it looks clean,
good, good. When we found you down in that cellar among the dead and dying, your wounds were
filthy. One of your ribs was broken, doubtless you can feel it, the blow of some mace perhaps, or a fall,
it's hard to say. And you took an arrow in the arm, there where it joins the shoulder. It showed signs of
mortification, and for a time I feared you might lose the limb, but we treated it with boiling wine and
maggots, and now it seems to be healing clean


"Name," Tyrion breathed up at him. "Name."
The maester blinked. "Why, you are Tyrion Lannister, my lord. Brother to the queen. Do you remember
the battle? Sometimes with head wounds-"
"Your name." His throat was raw, and his tongue had forgotten how to shape the words.
"I am Maester Ballabar."
"Ballabar," Tyrion repeated. "Bring me. Looking glass."
"my lord," the maester said, "I would not counsel . . . that might be, ah, unwise, as it were . . . your
wound . . ."
"Bring it," he had to say. His mouth was stiff and sore, as if a punch had split his lip. "And drink. Wine.
No poppy."
The maester rose flush-faced and hurried off. He came back with a flagon of pale amber wine and a
small silvered looking glass in an ornate golden frame. Sitting on the edge of the bed, he poured half a
cup of wine and held it to Tyrion's swollen lips. The trickle went down cool, though he could hardly taste
it. "More, " he said when the cup was empty. Maester Ballabar poured again. By the end of the second
cup, Tyrion Lannister felt strong enough to face his face.
He turned over the glass, and did not know whether he ought to laugh or cry. The gash was long and
crooked, starting a hair under his left eye and ending on the right side of his jaw. Three-quarters of his
nose was gone, and a chunk of his lip. Someone had sewn the torn flesh together with catgut, and their
clumsy stitches were still in place across the seam of raw, red, half-healed flesh. "Pretty, " he croaked,
flinging the glass aside.
He remembered now. The bridge of boats, Ser Mandon Moore, a hand, a sword coming at his face. If I
had not pulled back, that cut would have taken off the top of my head. Jaime had always said that Ser
Mandon was the most dangerous of the Kingsguard, because his dead empty eyes gave no hint to his
intentions. I should never have trusted any of them. He'd known that Ser Meryn and Ser Boros were his
sister's, and Ser Osmund later, but he had let himself believe that the others were not wholly lost to
honor. Cersei must have paid him to see that I never came back from the battle. Why else? I never did
Ser Mandon any harm that I know of. Tyrion touched his face, plucking at the proud flesh with blunt
thick fingers. Another gift from my sweet sister.
The maester stood beside the bed like a goose about to take flight. "My lord, there, there will most like
be a scar . . ."
"Most like?" His snort of laughter turned into a wince of pain. There would be a scar, to be sure. Nor
was it likely that his nose would be growing back anytime soon. It was not as if his face had ever been fit
to look at. "Teach me, not to, play with, axes." His grin felt tight. "Where, are we? What, what place?" It
hurt to talk, but Tyrion had been too long in silence.
"Ah, you are in Maegor's Holdfast, my lord. A chamber over the Queen's Ballroom. Her Grace wanted
you kept close, so she might watch over you herself."
I'll wager she did. "Return me," Tyrion commanded. "Own bed. Own chambers." Where I will have my


own men about me, and my own maester too, if I find one I can trust.
"Your own . . . my lord, that would not be possible. The King's Hand has taken up residence in your
former chambers."
'T Am. King's Hand." He was growing exhausted by the effort of speaking, and confused by what he
was hearing.
Maester Ballabar looked distressed. "No, my lord, I . . . you were wounded, near death. Your lord
father has taken up those duties now. Lord Tywin, he
"Here? "
"Since the night of the battle. Lord Tywin saved us all. The smallfolk say it was King Renly's ghost, but
wiser men know better. It was your father and Lord Tyrell, with the Knight of Flowers and Lord
Littlefinger. They rode through the ashes and took the usurper Stannis in the rear. It was a great victory,
and now Lord Tywin has settled into the Tower of the Hand to help His Grace set the realm to rights,
gods be praised."
"Gods be praised," Tyrion repeated hollowly. His bloody father and bloody Littlefinger and Renly's
ghost? "I want . . ." Who do I want? He could not tell pink Ballabar to fetch him Shae. Who could he
send for, who could he trust? Varys? Bronn? Ser Jacelyn? ". . . my squire," he finished. "Pod. Payne." It
was Pod on the bridge of boats, the lad saved my life.
"The boy? The odd boy?"
"Odd boy. Podrick. Payne. You go. Send him."
"As you will, my lord." Maester Ballabar bobbed his head and hurried out. Tyrion could feel the strength
seeping out of him as he waited. He wondered how long he had been here, asleep. Cersei would have
me sleep forever, but I won't be so obliging.
Podrick Payne entered the bedchamber timid as a mouse. "My lord?" He crept close to the bed. How
can a boy so bold in battle be so frightened in a sickroom? Tyrion wondered. "I meant to stay by you,
but the maester sent me away."
"Send him away. Hear me. Talk's hard. Need dreamwine. Dreamwine, not milk of the poppy. Go to
Frenken. Frenken, not Ballabar. Watch him make it. Bring it here." Pod stole a glance at Tyrion's face,
and just as quickly averted his eyes. Well, I cannot blame him for that. "I want," Tyrion went on, "mine
own. Guard. Bronn. Where's Bronn?"
"They made him a knight."
Even frowning hurt. "Find him. Bring him."
"As you say. My lord. Bronn."
Tyrion seized the lad's wrist. "Ser Mandon?"
The boy flinched. "I n-never meant to k-k-k-k-"


"Dead? You're, certain? Dead?"
He shuffled his feet, sheepish. "Drowned."
"Good. Say nothing. Of him. Of me. Any of it. Nothing."
By the time his squire left, the last of Tyrion's strength was gone as well. He lay back and closed his
eyes. Perhaps he would dream of Tysha again. I wonder how she'd like my face now, he thought bitterly.
CHAPTER 67
JON
When Qhorin Halfhand told him to find some brush for a fire, Jon knew their end was near.
it will be good to feel warm again, if only for a little while, he told himself while he hacked bare branches
from the trunk of a dead tree. Ghost sat on his haunches watching, silent as ever. Will he howl for me
when I'm dead, as Bran's wolf howled when he fell? Jon wondered. Will Shaggydog howl, far off in
Winterfell, and Grey Wind and Nymeria, wherever they might be?
The moon was rising behind one mountain and the sun sinking behind another as Jon struck sparks from
flint and dagger, until finally a wisp of smoke appeared. Qhorin came and stood over him as the first
flame rose up flickering from the shavings of bark and dead dry pine needles. "As shy as a maid on her
wedding night," the big ranger said in a soft voice, "and near as fair. Sometimes a man forgets how pretty
a fire can be."
He was not a man you'd expect to speak of maids and wedding nights. So far as Jon knew, Qhorin had
spent his whole life in the Watch. Did he ever love a maid or have a wedding? He could not ask. Instead
he fanned the fire. When the blaze was all acrackle, he peeled off his stiff gloves to warm his hands, and
sighed, wondering if ever a kiss had felt as good. The warmth spread through his fingers like melting
butter.
The Halfhand eased himself to the ground and sat cross-legged by the fire, the flickering light playing
across the hard planes of his face. only
the two of them remained of the five rangers who had fled the Skirling Pass, back into the blue-grey
wilderness of the Frostfangs.
At first Jon had nursed the hope that Squire Dalbridge would keep the wildlings bottled up in the pass.
But when they'd heard the call of a faroff horn every man of them knew the squire had fallen. Later they
spied the eagle soaring through the dusk on great blue-grey wings and Stonesnake unslung his bow, but
the bird flew out of range before he could so much as string it. Ebben spat and muttered darkly of wargs
and skinchangers.
They glimpsed the eagle twice more the day after, and heard the hunting horn behind them echoing
against the mountains. Each time it seemed a little louder, a little closer. When night fell, the Halfhand told
Ebben to take the squire's garron as well as his own, and ride east for Mormont with all haste, back the


way they had come. The rest of them would draw off the pursuit. "Send Jon," Ebben had urged. "He can
ride as fast as me."
"Jon has a different part to play."
"He is half a boy still."
"No," said Qhorin, "he is a man of the Night's Watch."
When the moon rose, Ebben parted from them. Stonesnake went east with him a short way, then
doubled back to obscure their tracks, and the three who remained set off toward the southwest.
After that the days and nights blurred one into the other. They slept in their saddles and stopped only
long enough to feed and water the garrons, then mounted up again. over bare rock they rode, through
gloomy pine forests and drifts of old snow, over icy ridges and across shallow rivers that had no names.
Sometimes Qhorin or Stonesnake would loop back to sweep away their tracks, but it was a futile
gesture. They were watched. At every dawn and every dusk they saw the eagle soaring between the
peaks, no more than a speck in the vastness of the sky.
They were scaling a low ridge between two snowcapped peaks when a shadowcat came snarling from
its lair, not ten yards away. The beast was gaunt and half-starved, but the sight of it sent Stonesnake's
mare into a panic; she reared and ran, and before the ranger could get her back under control she had
stumbled on the steep slope and broken a leg.
Ghost ate well that day, and Qhorin insisted that the rangers mix some of the garron's blood with their
oats, to give them strength. The taste of that foul porridge almost choked Jon, but he forced it down.
They each cut a dozen strips of raw stringy meat from the carcass to chew on as they rode, and left the
rest for the shadowcats.
There was no question of riding double. Stonesnake offered to lay in wait for the pursuit and surprise
them when they came. Perhaps he could
take a few of them with him down to hell. Qhorin refused. "if any man in the Night's Watch can make it
through the Frostfangs alone and afoot, it is you, brother. You can go over mountains that a horse must
go around. Make for the Fist. Tell Mormont what Jon saw, and how. Tell him that the old powers are
waking, that he faces giants and wargs and worse. Tell him that the trees have eyes again."
He has no chance, Jon thought when he watched Stonesnake vanish over a snow-covered ridge, a tiny
black bug crawling across a rippling expanse of white.
After that, every night seemed colder than the night before, and more lonely. Ghost was not always with
them, but he was never far either. Even when they were apart, Jon sensed his nearness. He was glad for
that. The Halfhand was not the most companionable of men. Qhorin's long grey braid swung slowly with
the motion of his horse. Often they would ride for hours without a word spoken, the only sounds the soft
scrape of horseshoes on stone and the keening of the wind, which blew endlessly through the heights.
When he slept, he did not dream; not of wolves, nor his brothers, nor anything. Even dreams cannot live
up here, he told himself.
"Is your sword sharp, Jon Snow?" asked Qhorin Halfhand across the flickering fire.
"My sword is Valyrian steel. The Old Bear gave it to me."


"Do you remember the words of your vow?"
"Yes." They were not words a man was like to forget. Once said, they could never be unsaid. They
changed your life forever.
"Say them again with me, Jon Snow."
"If you like." Their voices blended as one beneath the rising moon, while Ghost listened and the
mountains themselves bore witness. "Night gathers, and now my watch begins. It shall not end until my
death. I shall take no wife, hold no lands, father no children. I shall wear no crowns and win no glory. I
shall live and die at my post. I am the sword in the darkness. I am the watcher on the walls. I am the fire
that burns against the cold, the light that brings the dawn, the horn that wakes the sleepers, the shield that
guards the realms of men. I pledge my life and honor to the Night's Watch, for this night and all the nights
to come."
When they were done, there was no sound but the faint crackle of the flames and a distant sigh of wind.
Jon opened and closed his burnt fingers, holding tight to the words in his mind, praying that his father's
gods would give him the strength to die bravely when his hour came. It would not be long now. The
garrons were near the end of their strength. Qhorin's mount would not last another day, Jon suspected.
The flames were burning low by then, the warmth fading. "The fire will soon go out," Qhorin said, "but if
the Wall should ever fall, all the fires will go out."
There was nothing Jon could say to that. He nodded.
"We may escape them yet," the ranger said. "Or not."
"I'm not afraid to die." It was only half a lie.
"It may not be so easy as that, Jon."
He did not understand. "What do you mean?"
"If we are taken, you must yield."
"Yield?" He blinked in disbelief. The wildlings did not make captives of the men they called the crows.
They killed them, except for . . . "They only spare oathbreakers. Those who join them, like Mance
Rayder."
"And you."
"No." He shook his head. "Never. I won't."
"You will. I command it of you."
"Command it? But . . . " "Our honor means no more than our lives, so long as the realm is safe. Are you
a man of the Night's Watch?"
"Yes, but-"


"There is no but, Jon Snow. You are, or you are not."
Jon sat up straight. "I am."
"Then hear me. If we are taken, you will go over to them, as the wildling girl you captured once urged
you. They may demand that you cut your cloak to ribbons, that you swear them an oath on your father's
grave, that you curse your brothers and your Lord Commander. You must not balk, whatever is asked of
you. Do as they bid you . . . but in your heart, remember who and what you are. Ride with them, eat with
them, fight with them, for as long as it takes. And watch."
"For what?" Jon asked.
"Would that I knew," said Qhorin. "Your wolf saw their diggings in the valley of the Milkwater. What did
they seek, in such a bleak and distant place? Did they find it? That is what you must learn, before you
return to Lord Mormont and your brothers. That is the duty I lay on you, Jon Snow."
"I'll do as you say," Jon said reluctantly, "but . . . you will tell them, won't you? The Old Bear, at least?
You'll tell him that I never broke my oath."
Qhorin Halfhand gazed at him across the fire, his eyes lost in pools of shadow. "When I see him next. I
swear it." He gestured at the fire. "More wood. I want it bright and hot."
Jon went to cut more branches, snapping each one in two before tossing it into the flames. The tree had
been dead a long time, but it seemed
to live again in the fire, as fiery dancers woke within each stick of wood to whirl and spin in their glowing
gowns of yellow, red, and orange.
"Enough," Qhorin said abruptly. "Now we ride."
"Ride?" It was dark beyond the fire, and the night was cold. "Ride where? "
"Back." Qhorin mounted his weary garron one more time. "The fire will draw them past, I hope. Come,
brother."
Jon pulled on his gloves again and raised his hood. Even the horses seemed reluctant to leave the fire.
The sun was long gone, and only the cold silver shine of the half-moon remained to light their way over
the treacherous ground that lay behind them. He did not know what Qhorin had in mind, but perhaps it
was a chance. He hoped so. I do not want to play the oathbreaker, even for good reason.
They went cautiously, moving as silent as man and horse could move, retracing their steps until they
reached the mouth of a narrow defile where an icy little stream emerged from between two mountains.
Jon remembered the place. They had watered the horses here before the sun went down.
"The water's icing up," Qhorin observed as he turned aside, "else we'd ride in the streambed. But if we
break the ice, they are like to see. Keep close to the cliffs. There's a crook a half mile on that will hide
us." He rode into the defile. Jon gave one last wistful look to their distant fire, and followed.
The farther in they went, the closer the cliffs pressed to either side. They followed the moonlit ribbon of
stream back toward its source. Icicles bearded its stony banks, but Jon could still hear the sound of
rushing water beneath the thin hard crust.


A great jumble of fallen rock blocked their way partway up, where a section of the cliff face had fallen,
but the surefooted little garrons were able to pick their way through. Beyond, the walls pinched in
sharply, and the stream led them to the foot of a tall twisting waterfall. The air was full of mist, like the
breath of some vast cold beast. The tumbling waters shone silver in the moonlight. Jon looked about in
dismay. There is no way out. He and Qhorin might be able to climb the cliffs, but not with the horses. He
did not think they would last long afoot.
"Quickly now," the Halfhand commanded. The big man on the small horse rode over the ice-slick
stones, right into the curtain of water, and vanished. When he did not reappear, Jon put his heels into his
horse and went after. His garron did his best to shy away. The falling water slapped at them with frozen
fists, and the shock of the cold seemed to stop Jon's breath.
Then he was through; drenched and shivering, but through.
The cleft in the rock was barely large enough for man and horse to
pass, but beyond, the walls opened up and the floor turned to soft sand. Jon could feel the spray freezing
in his beard. Ghost burst through the waterfall in an angry rush, shook droplets from his fur, sniffed at the
darkness suspiciously, then lifted a leg against one rocky wall. Qhorin had already dismounted. Jon did
the same. "You knew this place was here."
"When I was no older than you, I heard a brother tell how he followed a shadowcat through these falls."
He unsaddled his horse, removed her bit and bridle, and ran his fingers through her shaggy mane. "There
is a way through the heart of the mountain. Come dawn, if they have not found us, we will press on. The
first watch is mine, brother." Qhorin seated himself on the sand, his back to a wall, no more than a vague
black shadow in the gloom of the cave. Over the rush of falling waters, Jon heard a soft sound of steel on
leather that could only mean that the Halfhand had drawn his sword.
He took off his wet cloak, but it was too cold and damp here to strip down any further. Ghost stretched
out beside him and licked his glove before curling up to sleep. Jon was grateful for his warmth. He
wondered if the fire was still burning outside, or if it had gone out by now. ff the Wall should ever fall, all
the fires will go out. The moon shone through the curtain of falling water to lay a shimmering pale stripe
across the sand, but after a time that too faded and went dark.
Sleep came at last, and with it nightmares. He dreamed of burning castles and dead men rising unquiet
from their graves. It was still dark when Qhorin woke him. While the Halfhand slept, Jon sat with his
back to the cave wall, listening to the water and waiting for the dawn.
At break of day, they each chewed a half-frozen strip of horsemeat, then saddled their garrons once
again, and fastened their black cloaks around their shoulders. During his watch the Halfhand had made a
halfdozen torches, soaking bundles of dry moss with the oil he carried in his saddlebag. He lit the first one
now and led the way down into the dark, holding the pale flame up before him. Jon followed with the
horses. The stony path twisted and turned, first down, then up, then down more steeply. In spots it grew
so narrow it was hard to convince the garrons they could squeeze through. By the time we come out we
will have lost them, he told himself as they went. Not even an eagle can see through solid stone. We will
have lost them, and we will ride hard for the Fist, and tell the Old Bear all we know
But when they emerged back into the light long hours later, the eagle was waiting for them, perched on a
dead tree a hundred feet up the slope. Ghost went bounding up the rocks after it, but the bird flapped its
wings and took to the air.


Qhorin's mouth tightened as he followed its flight with his eyes.
"Here is as good a place as any to make a stand," he declared. "The mouth of the cave shelters us from
above, and they cannot get behind us without passing through the mountain. Is your sword sharp, Jon
Snow?"
"Yes," he said.
"We'll feed the horses. They've served us bravely, poor beasts."
Jon gave his garron the last of the oats and stroked his shaggy mane while Ghost prowled restlessly
amongst the rocks. He pulled his gloves on tighter and flexed his burnt fingers. I am the shield that guards
the realms of men.
A hunting horn echoed through the mountains, and a moment later Jon heard the baying of hounds.
"They will be with us soon," announced Qhorin. "Keep your wolf in hand."
"Ghost, to me," Jon called. The direwolf returned reluctantly to his side, tail held stiffly behind him.
The wildlings came boiling over a ridge not half a mile away. Their hounds ran before them, snarling
grey-brown beasts with more than a little wolf in their blood. Ghost bared his teeth, his fur bristling.
"Easy," Jon murmured. "Stay." Overhead he heard a rustle of wings. The eagle landed on an outcrop of
rock and screamed in triumph.
The hunters approached warily, perhaps fearing arrows. Jon counted fourteen, with eight dogs. Their
large round shields were made of skins stretched over woven wicker and painted with skulls. About half
of them hid their faces behind crude helms of wood and boiled leather. On either wing, archers notched
shafts to the strings of small wood-and-horn bows, but did not loose. The rest seemed to be armed with
spears and mauls. One had a chipped stone axe. They wore only what bits of armor they had looted
from dead rangers or stolen during raids. Wildlings did not mine or smelt, and there were few smiths and
fewer forges north of the Wall.
Qhorin drew his longsword. The tale of how he had taught himself to fight with his left hand after losing
half of his right was part of his legend; it was said that he handled a blade better now than he ever had
before. Jon stood shoulder to shoulder with the big ranger and pulled Longclaw from its sheath. Despite
the chill in the air, sweat stung his eyes.
Ten yards below the cave mouth the hunters halted. Their leader came on alone, riding a beast that
seemed more goat than horse, from the surefooted way it climbed the uneven slope. As man and mount
grew nearer Jon could hear them clattering; both were armored in bones. Cow bones, sheep bones, the
bones of goats and aurochs and elk, the great bones of the hairy mammoths . . . and human bones as
well.
"Rattleshirt," Qhorin called down, icy-polite.
"To crows I be the Lord o' Bones." The rider's helm was made from
the broken skull of a giant, and all up and down his arms bearclaws had been sewn to his boiled leather.
Qhorin snorted. "I see no lord. Only a dog dressed in chickenbones, who rattles when he rides."


The wildling hissed in anger, and his mount reared. He did rattle, Jon could hear it; the bones were
strung together loosely, so they clacked and clattered when he moved. "It's your bones I'll be rattling
soon, Halfhand. I'll boil the flesh off you and make a byrnie from your ribs. I'll carve your teeth to cast me
runes, and eat me oaten porridge from your skull."
"If you want my bones, come get them."
That, Rattleshirt seemed reluctant to do. His numbers meant little in the close confines of the rocks
where the black brothers had taken their stand; to winkle them out of the cave the wildlings would need
to come up two at a time. But another of his company edged a horse up beside him, one of the fighting
women called spearwives. "We are four-and-ten to two, crows, and eight dogs to your wolf," she called.
"Fight or run, you are ours. "
"Show them," commanded Rattleshirt.
The woman reached into a bloodstained sack and drew out a trophy. Ebben had been bald as an egg,
so she dangled the head by an ear. "He died brave," she said.
"But he died," said Rattleshirt, "same like you." He freed his battleaxe, brandishing it above his head.
Good steel it was, with a wicked gleam to both blades; Ebben was never a man to neglect his weapons.
The other wildlings crowded forward beside him, yelling taunts. A few chose Jon for their mockery. "Is
that your wolf, boy?" a skinny youth called, unlimbering a stone flail. "He'll be my cloak before the sun is
down." On the other side of the line, another spearwife opened her ragged furs to show Jon a heavy
white breast. "Does the baby want his momma? Come, have a suck o' this, boy." The dogs were barking
too.
"They would shame us into folly." Qhorin gave Jon a long look. "Remember your orders."
"Belike we need to flush the crows," Rattleshirt bellowed over the clamor. "Feather them!"
"No!" The word burst from Jon's lips before the bowmen could loose. He took two quick steps
forward. "We yield!"
"They warned me bastard blood was craven," he heard Qhorin Halfhand say coldly behind him. "I see it
is so. Run to your new masters, coward."
Face reddening, Jon descended the slope to where Rattleshirt sat his horse. The wildling stared at him
through the eyeholes of his helm, and said, "The free folk have no need of cravens."
"He is no craven." One of the archers pulled off her sewn sheepskin
helm and shook out a head of shaggy red hair. "This is the Bastard o' Winterfell, who spared me. Let
him live."
Jon met Ygritte's eyes, and had no words.
"Let him die," insisted the Lord of Bones. "The black crow is a tricksy bird. I trust him not."
On a rock above them, the eagle flapped its wings and split the air with a scream of fury.


"The bird hates you, Jon Snow," said Ygritte. "And well he might. He was a man, before you killed him."
"I did not know," said Jon truthfully, trying to remember the face of the man he had slain in the pass.
"You told me Mance would take me."
"And he will," Ygritte said.
"Mance is not here," said Rattleshirt. "Ragwyle, gut him."
The big spearwife narrowed her eyes and said, "If the crow would join the free folk, let him show us his
prowess and prove the truth of him."
"I'll do whatever you ask." The words came hard, but Jon said them.
Rattleshirt's bone armor clattered loudly as he laughed. "Then kill the Halfhand, bastard."
"As if he could," said Qhorin. "Turn, Snow, and die."
And then Qhorin's sword was coming at him and somehow Longclaw leapt upward to block. The force
of impact almost knocked the bastard blade from Jon's hand, and sent him staggering backward. You
must not balk, whatever is asked of you. He shifted to a two-hand grip, quick enough to deliver a stroke
of his own, but the big ranger brushed it aside with contemptuous ease. Back and forth they went, black
cloaks swirling, the youth's quickness against the savage strength of Qhorin's left-hand cuts. The
Halfhand's longsword seemed to be everywhere at once, raining down from one side and then the other,
driving him where he would, keeping him off balance. Already he could feel his arms growing numb.
Even when Ghost's teeth closed savagely around the ranger's calf, somehow Qhorin kept his feet. But in
that instant, as he twisted, the opening was there. Jon planted and pivoted. The ranger was leaning away,
and for an instant it seemed that Jon's slash had not touched him. Then a string of red tears appeared
across the big man's throat, bright as a ruby necklace, and the blood gushed out of him, and Qhorin
Halfhand fell.
Ghost's muzzle was dripping red, but only the point of the bastard blade was stained, the last half inch.
Jon pulled the direwolf away and knelt with one arm around him. The light was already fading in Qhorin's
eyes. ". . . sharp," he said, lifting his maimed fingers. Then his hand fell, and he was gone.
He knew, he thought numbly. He knew what they would ask of me.
He thought of Samwell Tarly then, of Grenn and Dolorous Edd, of Pyp and Toad back at Castle Black.
Had he lost them all, as he had lost Bran and Rickon and Robb? Who was he now? What was he?
"Get him up." Rough hands dragged him to his feet. Jon did not resist. "Do you have a name?"
Ygritte answered for him. "His name is Jon Snow. He is Eddard Stark's blood, of Winterfell."
Ragwyle laughed. "Who would have thought it? Qhorin Halfhand slain by some lordling's byblow."
"Gut him." That was Rattleshirt, still ahorse. The eagle flew to him and perched atop his bony helm,
screeching.
"He yielded," Ygritte reminded them.


"Aye, and slew his brother," said a short homely man in a rust-eaten iron halffielm.
Rattleshirt rode closer, bones clattering. "The wolf did his work for him. It were foully done. The
Halfhand's death was mine."
"We all saw how eager you were to take it," mocked Ragwyle.
"He is a warg," said the Lord of Bones, "and a crow. I like him not."
"A warg he may be," Ygritte said, "but that has never frightened us." Others shouted agreement. Behind
the eyeholes of his yellowed skull Rattleshirt's stare was malignant, but he yielded grudgingly. These are a
free folk indeed, thought Jon.
They burned Qhorin Halfhand where he'd fallen, on a pyre made of pine needles, brush, and broken
branches. Some of the wood was still green, and it burned slow and smoky, sending a black plume up
into the bright hard blue of the sky. Afterward Rattleshirt claimed some charred bones, while the others
threw dice for the ranger's gear. Ygritte won his cloak.
"Will we return by the Skirling Pass?" Jon asked her. He did not know if he could face those heights
again, or if his garron could survive a second crossing.
"No," she said. "There's nothing behind us." The look she gave him was sad. "By now Mance is well
down the Milkwater, marching on your Wall."
CHAPTER 68
BRAN
The ashes fell like a soft grey snow.
He padded over dry needles and brown leaves, to the edge of the wood where the pines grew thin.
Beyond the open fields he could see the great piles of man-rock stark against the swirling flames. The
wind blew hot and rich with the smell of blood and burnt meat, so strong he began to slaver.
Yet as one smell drew them onward, others warned them back. He sniffed at the drifting smoke. Men,
many men, many horses, and fire, fire, fire. No smell was more dangerous, not even the hard cold smell
of iron, the stuff of manclaws and hardskin. The smoke and ash clouded his eyes, and in the sky he saw a
great winged snake whose roar was a river of flame. He bared his teeth, but then the snake was gone.
Behind the cliffs tall fires were eating up the stars.
All through the night the fires crackled, and once there was a great roar and a crash that made the earth
jump under his feet. Dogs barked and whined and horses screamed in terror. Howls shuddered through
the night; the howls of the man-pack, wails of fear and wild shouts, laughter and screams. No beast was
as noisy as man. He pricked up his ears and listened, and his brother growled at every sound. They
prowled under the trees as a piney wind blew ashes and embers through the sky. In time the flames
began to dwindle, and then they were gone. The sun rose grey and smoky that morning.


only then did he leave the trees, stalking slow across the fields. His
brother ran with him, drawn to the smell of blood and death. They padded silent through the dens the
men had built of wood and grass and mud. Many and more were burned and many and more were
collapsed; others stood as they had before. Yet nowhere did they see or scent a living man. Crows
blanketed the bodies and leapt into the air screeching when his brother and he came near. The wild dogs
slunk away before them.
Beneath the great grey cliffs a horse was dying noisily, struggling to rise on a broken leg and screaming
when he fell. His brother circled round him, then tore out his throat while the horse kicked feebly and
rolled his eyes. When he approached the carcass his brother snapped at him and laid back his ears, and
he cuffed him with a forepaw and bit his leg. They fought amidst the grass and dirt and falling ashes
beside the dead horse, until his brother rolled on his back in submission, tail tucked low. One more bite
at his upturned throat; then he fed, and let his brother feed, and licked the blood off his black fur.
The dark place was pulling at him by then, the house of whispers where all men were blind. He could
feel its cold fingers on him. The stony smell of it was a whisper up the nose. He struggled against the pull.
He did not like the darkness. He was wolf. He was hunter and stalker and slayer, and he belonged with
his brothers and sisters in the deep woods, running free beneath a starry sky. He sat on his haunches,
raised his head, and howled. I will not go, he cried. I am wolf, I will not go. Yet even so the darkness
thickened, until it covered his eyes and filled his nose and stopped his ears, so he could not see or smell
or hear or run, and the grey cliffs were gone and the dead horse was gone and his brother was gone and
all was black and still and black and cold and black and dead and black . . .
"Bran," a voice was whispering softly. "Bran, come back. Come back now, Bran. Bran . . ."
He closed his third eye and opened the other two, the old two, the blind two. In the dark place all men
were blind. But someone was holding him. He could feel arms around him, the warmth of a body
snuggled close. He could hear Hodor singing "Hodor, hodor, hodor," quietly to himself.
"Bran?" It was Meera's voice. "You were thrashing, making terrible noises. What did you see?"
"Winterfell." His tongue felt strange and thick in his mouth. One day when I come back I won't know
how to talk anymore. "It was Winterfell. It was all on fire. There were horse smells, and steel, and blood.
They killed everyone, Meera."
He felt her hand on his face, stroking back his hair. "You're all sweaty," she said. "Do you need a drink?"
"A drink," he agreed. She held a skin to his lips, and Bran swallowed so fast the water ran out of the
corner of his mouth. He was always weak and thirsty when he came back. And hungry too. He
remembered the dying horse, the taste of blood in his mouth, the smell of burnt flesh in the morning air.
"How long?"
"Three days," said Jojen. The boy had come up softfoot, or perhaps he had been there all along; in this
blind black world, Bran could not have said. "We were afraid for you."
"I was with Summer," Bran said.
"Too long. You'll starve yourself. Meera dribbled a little water down your throat, and we smeared honey
on your mouth, but it is not enough."


"I ate," said Bran. "We ran down an elk and had to drive off a treecat that tried to steal him." The cat
had been tan-and-brown, only half the size of the direwolves, but fierce. He remembered the musky
smell of him, and the way he had snarled down at them from the limb of the oak.
"The wolf ate," Jojen said. "Not you. Take care, Bran. Remember who you are."
He remembered who he was all too well; Bran the boy, Bran the broken. Better Bran the beastling. Was
it any wonder he would sooner dream his Summer dreams, his wolf dreams? Here in the chill damp
darkness of the tomb his third eye had finally opened. He could reach Summer whenever he wanted, and
once he had even touched Ghost and talked to Jon. Though maybe he had only dreamed that. He could
not understand why Joien was always trying to pull him back now. Bran used the strength of his arms to
squirm to a sitting position. "I have to tell Osha what I saw. Is she here? Where did she go?"
The wildling woman herself gave answer. "Nowhere, m'lord. I've had my fill o' blundering in the black."
He heard the scrape of a heel on stone, turned his head toward the sound, but saw nothing. He thought
he could smell her, but he wasn't sure. All of them stank alike, and he did not have Summer's nose to tell
one from the other. "Last night I pissed on a king's foot," Osha went on. "Might be it was morning, who
can say? I was sleeping, but now I'm not." They all slept a lot, not only Bran. There was nothing else to
do, Sleep and eat and sleep again, and sometimes talk a little . . . but not too much, and only in whispers,
just to be safe. Osha might have liked it better if they had never talked at all, but there was no way to
quiet Rickon, or to stop Hodor from muttering, "Hodor, hodor, hodor," endlessly to himself.
"Osha," Bran said, "I saw Winterfell burning." Off to his left, he could hear the soft sound of Rickon's
breathing.
"A dream," said Osha.
"A wolf dream," said Bran. "I smelled it too. Nothing smells like fire, or blood."
"Whose blood?"
"Men, horses, dogs, everyone. We have to go see."
"This scrawny skin of mine's the only one I got," said Osha. "That squid prince catches hold o' me, they'll
strip it off my back with a whip."
Meera's hand found Bran's in the darkness and gave his fingers a squeeze. "I'll go if you're afraid."
Bran heard fingers fumbling at leather, followed by the sound of steel on flint. Then again. A spark flew,
caught. Osha blew softly. A long pale flame awoke, stretching upward like a girl on her toes. Osha's face
floated above it. She touched the flame with the head of a torch. Bran had to squint as the pitch began to
burn, filling the world with orange glare. The light woke Rickon, who sat up yawning.
When the shadows moved, it looked for an instant as if the dead were rising as well. Lyanna and
Brandon, Lord Rickard Stark their father, Lord Edwyle his father, Lord Willam and his brother Artos the
Implacable, Lord Donnor and Lord Beron and Lord Rodwell, one-eyed Lord jonnel, Lord Barth and
Lord Brandon and Lord Cregan who had fought the Dragonknight. On their stone chairs they sat with
stone wolves at their feet. This was where they came when the warmth had seeped out of their bodies;
this was the dark hall of the dead, where the living feared to tread.


And in the mouth of the empty tomb that waited for Lord Eddard Stark, beneath his stately granite
likeness, the six fugitives huddled round their little cache of bread and water and dried meat. "Little
enough left," Osha muttered as she blinked down on their stores. "I'd need to go up soon to steal food in
any case, or we'd be down to eating Hodor. "
"Hodor," Hodor said, grinning at her.
"Is it day or night up there?" Osha wondered. "I've lost all count o' such."
"Day," Bran told her, "but it's dark from all the smoke."
"M'Iord is certain?"
Never moving his broken body, he reached out all the same, and for an instant he was seeing double.
There stood Osha holding the torch, and Meera and jojen and Hodor, and the double row of tall granite
pillars and long dead lords behind them stretching away into darkness . . . but there was Winterfell as
well, grey with drifting smoke, the massive oakand-iron gates charred and askew, the drawbridge down
in a tangle of broken chains and missing planks. Bodies floated in the moat, islands for the crows.
"Certain," he declared.
Osha chewed on that a moment. "I'll risk a look then. I want the lot o' you close behind. Meera, get
Bran's basket."
"Are we going home?" Rickon asked excitedly. "I want my horse. And I want applecakes and butter
and honey, and Shaggy. Are we going where Shaggydog is?"
"Yes," Bran promised, "but you have to be quiet."
Meera strapped the wicker basket to Hodor's back and helped lift Bran into it, easing his useless legs
through the holes. He had a queer flutter in his belly. He knew what awaited them above, but that did not
make it any less fearful. As they set off, he turned to give his father one last look, and it seemed to Bran
that there was a sadness in Lord Eddard's eyes, as if he did not want them to go. We have to, he
thought. It's time.
Osha carried her long oaken spear in one hand and the torch in the other. A naked sword hung down
her back, one of the last to bear Mikken's mark. He had forged it for Lord Eddard's tomb, to keep his
ghost at rest. But with Mikken slain and the ironmen guarding the armory, good steel had been hard to
resist, even if it meant grave-robbing. Meera had claimed Lord Rickard's blade, though she complained
that it was too heavy. Brandon took his namesake's, the sword made for the uncle he had never known.
He knew he would not be much use in a fight, but even so the blade felt good in his hand.
But it was only a game, and Bran knew it.
Their footsteps echoed through the cavernous crypts. The shadows behind them swallowed his father as
the shadows ahead retreated to unveil other statues; no mere lords, these, but the old Kings in the North.
On their brows they wore stone crowns. Torrhen Stark, the King Who Knelt. Edwyn the Spring King.
Theon Stark, the Hungry Wolf. Brandon the Burner and Brandon the Shipwright. Jorah and jonos,
Brandon the Bad, Walton the Moon King, Edderion the Bridegroom, Eyron, Benjen the Sweet and
Benjen the Bitter, King Edrick Snowbeard. Their faces were stern and strong, and some of them had
done terrible things, but they were Starks every one, and Bran knew all their tales. He had never feared


the crypts; they were part of his home and who he was, and he had always known that one day he would
lie here too.
But now he was not so certain. If I go up, will I ever come back down? Where will I go when I die?
"Wait," Osha said when they reached the twisting stone stairs that led up to the surface, and down to the
deeper levels where kings more ancient still sat their dark thrones. She handed Meera the torch. "I'll
grope my way up." For a time they could hear the sound of her footfalls, but they grew softer and softer
until they faded away entirely. "Hodor," said Hodor nervously.
Bran had told himself a hundred times how much he hated hiding
down here in the dark, how much he wanted to see the sun again, to ride his horse through wind and
rain. But now that the moment was upon him, he was afraid. He'd felt safe in the darkness; when you
could not even find your own hand in front of your face, it was easy to believe that no enemies could ever
find you either. And the stone lords had given him courage. Even when he could not see them, he had
known they were there.
It seemed a long while before they heard anything again. Bran had begun to fear that something had
happened to Osha. His brother was squirming restlessly. "I want to go home!" he said loudly. Hodor
bobbed his head and said, "Hodor." Then they heard the footsteps again, growing louder, and after a few
minutes Osba emerged into the light, looking grim. "Something is blocking the door. I can't move it."
"Hodor can move anything," said Bran.
Osha gave the huge stableboy an appraising look. "Might be he can. Come on, then."
The steps were narrow, so they had to climb in single file. Osha led. Behind came Hodor, with Bran
crouched low on his back so his head wouldn't hit the ceiling. Meera followed with the torch, and Jojen
brought up the rear, leading Rickon by the hand. Around and around they went, and up and up. Bran
thought he could smell smoke now, but perhaps that was only the torch.
The door to the crypts was made of ironwood. It was old and heavy, and lay at a slant to the ground.
Only one person could approach it at a time. Osha tried once more when she reached it, but Bran could
see that it was not budging. "Let Hodor try."
They had to pull Bran from his basket first, so he would not get squished. Meera squatted beside him on
the steps, one arm thrown protectively across his shoulders, as Osha and Hodor traded places. "Open
the door, Hodor," Bran said.
The huge stableboy put both hands flat on the door, pushed, and grunted. "Hodor?" He slammed a fist
against the wood, and it did not so much as jump. "Hodor."
"Use your back," urged Bran. "And your legs."
Turning, Hodor put his back to the wood and shoved. Again. Again. "Hodor!" He put one foot on a
higher step so he was bent under the slant of the door and tried to rise. This time the wood groaned and
creaked. "Hodor!" The other foot came up a step, and Hodor spread his legs apart, braced, and
straightened. His face turned red, and Bran could see cords in his neck bulging as he strained against the
weight above him. "Hodor hodor hodor hodor hodor HODOR!" From above came a dull rumble. Then
suddenly the door jerked upward and a shaft of daylight fell across Bran's face, blinding him for a


moment. Another shove brought the
sound of shifting stone, and then the way was open. Osha poked her spear through and slid out after it,
and Rickon squirmed through Meera's legs to follow. Hodor shoved the door open all the way and
stepped to the surface. The Reeds had to carry Bran up the last few steps.
The sky was a pale grey, and smoke eddied all around them. They stood in the shadow of the First
Keep, or what remained of it. One whole side of the building had torn loose and fallen away. Stone and
shattered gargoyles lay strewn across the yard. They fell just where I did, Bran thought when he saw
them. Some of the gargoyles had broken into so many pieces it made him wonder how he was alive at
all. Nearby some crows were pecking at a body crushed beneath the tumbled stone, but he lay facedown
and Bran could not say who he was.
The First Keep had not been used for many hundreds of years, but now it was more of a shell than ever.
The floors had burned inside it, and all the beams. Where the wall had fallen away, they could see right
into the rooms, even into the privy. Yet behind, the broken tower still stood, no more burned than before.
Jojen Reed was coughing from the smoke. "Take me home!" Rickon demanded. "I want to be home!"
Hodor stomped in a circle. "Hodor," he whimpered in a small voice. They stood huddled together with
ruin and death all around them.
"We made noise enough to wake a dragon," Osha said, "but there's no one come. The castle's dead and
burned, just as Bran dreamed, but we had best-" She broke off suddenly at a noise behind them, and
whirled with her spear at the ready.
Two lean dark shapes emerged from behind the broken tower, padding slowly through the rubble.
Rickon gave a happy shout of "Shaggy!" and the black direwolf came bounding toward him. Summer
advanced more slowly, rubbed his head up against Bran's arm, and licked his face.
"We should go," said Jojen. "So much death will bring other wolves besides Summer and Shaggydog,
and not all on four feet."
"Aye, soon enough," Osha agreed, "but we need food, and there may be some survived this, Stay
together. Meera, keep your shield up and guard our backs."
it took the rest of the morning to make a slow circuit of the castle. The great granite walls remained,
blackened here and there by fire but otherwise untouched. But within, all was death and destruction. The
doors of the Great Hall were charred and smoldering, and inside the rafters had given way and the whole
roof had crashed down onto the floor. The green and yellow panes of the glass gardens were all in
shards, the trees and fruits and flowers torn up or left exposed to die. of the stables, made of wood and
thatch, nothing remained but ashes, embers, and dead horses. Bran thought of his Dancer, and wanted to
weep. There was a shallow steaming lake beneath the Library Tower, and hot water
gushing from a crack in its side. The bridge between the Bell Tower and the rookery had collapsed into
the yard below, and Maester Luwin's turret was gone. They saw a dull red glow shining up through the
narrow cellar windows beneath the Great Keep, and a second fire still burning in one of the storehouses.
Osha called softly through the blowing smoke as they went, but no one answered. They saw one dog
worrying at a corpse, but he ran when he caught the scents of the direwolves; the rest had been slain in
the kennels. The maester's ravens were paying court to some of the corpses, while the crows from the
broken tower attended others. Bran recognized Poxy Tym, even though someone had taken an axe to his
face. One charred corpse, outside the ashen shell of Mother's sept, sat with his arms drawn up and his


hands balled into hard black fists, as if to punch anyone who dared approach him. "If the gods are good,"
Osha said in a low angry voice, "the Others will take them that did this work."
"It was Theon," Bran said blackly.
"No. Look." She pointed across the yard with her spear. "That's one of his ironmen. And there. And
that's Greyjoy's warhorse, see? The black one with the arrows in him." She moved among the dead,
frowning. "And here's Black Lorren." He had been hacked and cut so badly that his beard looked a
reddish-brown now. "Took a few with him, he did." Osha turned over one of the other corpses with her
foot. "There's a badge. A little man, all red."
"The flayed man of the Dreadfort," said Bran.
Summer howled, and darted away.
"The godswood." Meera Reed ran after the direwolf, her shield and frog spear to hand. The rest of them
trailed after, threading their way through smoke and fallen stones. The air was sweeter under the trees. A
few pines along the edge of the wood had been scorched, but deeper in the damp soil and green wood
had defeated the flames. "There is a power in living wood," said jojen Reed, almost as if he knew what
Bran was thinking, "a power strong as fire."
On the edge of the black pool, beneath the shelter of the heart tree, Maester Luwin lay on his belly in the
dirt. A trail of blood twisted back through damp leaves where he had crawled. Summer stood over him,
and Bran thought he was dead at first, but when Meera touched his throat, the maester moaned.
"Hodor?" Hodor said mournfully. "Hodor?"
Gently, they eased Luwin onto his back. He had grey eyes and grey hair, and once his robes had been
grey as well, but they were darker now where the blood had soaked through. "Bran," he said softly when
he saw him sitting tall on Hodor's back. "And Rickon too." He smiled. "The gods are good. I knew . . ."
"Knew?" said Bran uncertainly.
"The legs, I could tell . . . the clothes fit, but the muscles in his legs . . . poor lad . . ." He coughed, and
blood came up from inside him. "You vanished . . . in the woods . . . how, though? "
"We never went," said Bran. "Well, only to the edge, and then doubled back. I sent the wolves on to
make a trail, but we hid in Father's tomb."
"The crypts." Luwin chuckled, a froth of blood on his lips. When the maester tried to move, he gave a
sharp gasp of pain.
Tears filled Bran's eyes. When a man was hurt you took him to the maester, but what could you do
when your maester was hurt?
"We'll need to make a litter to carry him," said Osha.
"No use," said Luwin. "I'm dying, woman."
"You can't," said Rickon angrily. "No you can't." Beside him, Shaggydog bared his teeth and growled.
The maester smiled. "Hush now, child, I'm much older than you. I can . . . die as I please."


"Hodor, down," said Bran. Hodor went to his knees beside the maester.
"Listen," Luwin said to Osha, "the princes . . . Robb's heirs. Not . . . not together . . . do you hear?"
The wildling woman leaned on her spear. "Aye. Safer apart. But where to take them? I'd thought, might
be these Cerwyns . . ."
Maester Luwin shook his head, though it was plain to see what the effort cost him. "Cerwyn boy's dead.
Ser Rodrik, Leobald Tallhart, Lady Hornwood . . . all slain. Deepwood fallen, Moat Cailin, soon
Torrhen's Square. Ironmen on the Stony Shore. And east, the Bastard of Bolton."
"Then where?" asked Osha.
"White Harbor . . . the Umbers . . . I do not know . . . war everywhere . . . each man against his
neighbor, and winter coming . . . such folly, such black mad folly . . ." Maester Luwin reached up and
grasped Bran's forearm, his fingers closing with a desperate strength. "You must be strong now. Strong."
"I will be," Bran said, though it was hard. Ser Rodrik killed and Maester Luwin, everyone, everyone . . .
"Good," the maester said. "A good boy. Your . . . your father's son, Bran. Now go."
Osha gazed up at the weirwood, at the red face carved in the pale trunk. "And leave you for the gods?"
"I beg . . ." The maester swallowed. a . . . a drink of water,
and . . . another boon. If you would . .
"Aye." She turned to Meera. "Take the boys."
Jojen and Meera led Rickon out between them. Hodor followed. Low branches whipped at Bran's face
as they pushed between the trees, and the leaves brushed away his tears. Osha joined them in the yard a
few
moments later. She said no word of Maester Luwin. "Hodor must stay with Bran, to be his legs," the
wildling woman said briskly. "I will take Rickon with me."
"We'll go with Bran," said Jojen Reed.
"Aye, I thought you might," said Osha. "Believe I'll try the East Gate, and follow the kingsroad a ways."
"We'll take the Hunter's Gate," said Meera.
"Hodor," said Hodor.
They stopped at the kitchens first. Osha found some loaves of burned bread that were still edible, and
even a cold roast fowl that she ripped in half. Meera unearthed a crock of honey and a big sack of
apples. Outside, they made their farewells. Rickon sobbed and clung to Hodor's leg until Osha gave him
a smack with the butt end of her spear. Then he followed her quick enough. Shaggydog stalked after
them. The last Bran saw of them was the direwolf's tail as it vanished behind the broken tower.


The iron portcullis that closed the Hunter's Gate had been warped so badly by heat it could not be
raised more than a foot. They had to squeeze beneath its spikes, one by one.
"Will we go to your lord father?" Bran asked as they crossed the drawbridge between the walls. "To
Greywater Watch?"
Meera looked to her brother for the answer. "Our road is north," Jojen announced.
At the edge of the wolfswood, Bran turned in his basket for one last glimpse of the castle that had been
his life. Wisps of smoke still rose into the grey sky, but no more than might have risen from Winterfell's
chimneys on a cold autumn afternoon. Soot stains marked some of the arrow loops, and here and there a
crack or a missing merlon could be seen in the curtain wall, but it seemed little enough from this distance.
Beyond, the tops of the keeps and towers still stood as they had for hundreds of years, and it was hard
to tell that the castle had been sacked and burned at all. The stone is strong, Bran told himself, the roots
of the trees go deep, and under the ground the Kings of Winter sit their thrones. So long as those
remained, Winterfell remained. It was not dead, just broken. Like me, he thought. I'm not dead either.
APPENDIX
THE KINGS AND THEIR COURTS
THE KING ON THE IRON THRONE
JOFFREY BARATHEON, the First of His Name, a boy of thirteen years, the eldest son of King
Robert I Baratheon and Queen Cersei of House Lannister,
-his mother, QUEEN CERSEI, Queen Regent and Protector of the Realm,
-his sister, PRINCESS MYRCELLA, a girl of nine,
-his brother, PRINCE TOMMEN, a boy of eight, heir to the Iron Throne,
-his uncles, on his father's side:
-STANNIS BARATHEON, Lord of Dragonstone, styling himself King Stannis the First,
-RENLY BARATHEON, Lord of Storm's End, styling himself King Renly the First,
-his uncles, on his mother's side:
-SER JAIME LANNISTER, the Kingslayer, Lord Commander of the Kingsguard, a captive
at Riverrun,
-TYRION LANNISTER, acting Hand of the King,
-Tyrion's squire, PODRICK PAYNE,


-Tyrion's guards and sworn swords:
-BRONN, a sellsword, black of hair and heart,
-SHAGGA SON OF DOLF, of the Stone Crows,
-TIMETT SON OF TIMETT, of the Burned Men,
-CHELLA DAUGHTER OF CHEYK, of the Black Ears,
-CRAWN SON OF CALOR, of the Moon Brothers,
-Tyrion's concubine, SHAE, a camp follower, eighteen,
-his small council:
-GRAND MAESTER PYCELLE,
-LORD PETYR BAELISH, called LITTLEFINGER, master of coin,
-LORD JANOS SLYNT, Commander of the City Watch of King's Landing (the "gold
cloaks"),
-VARYS, a eunuch, called the SPIDER, master of whisperers,
-his Kingsguard:
-SER JAIME LANNISTER, called the KINGSLAYER, Lord Commander, a captive at
Riverrun,
-SANDOR CLEGANE, called the HOUND,
-SER BOROS BLOUNT,
-SER MERYN TRANT,
-SER ARYS OAKHEART,
-SER PRESTON GREENFIELD,
-SER MANDON MOORE,
-his court and retainers:
-SER ILYN PAYNE, the King's justice, a headsman,
-VYLARR, captain of the Lannister household guards at King's Landing (the "red cloaks"),
-SER LANCEL LANNISTER, formerly squire to King Robert, recently knighted,
-TYREK LANNISTER, formerly squire to King Robert,


-SER ARON SANTAGAR, master-at-arms,
-SER BALON SWANN, second son to Lord Gulian Swann of Stonehelm,
-LADY ERMESANDE HAYFORD, a babe at the breast,
-SER DONTOS HOLLARD, called the RED, a drunk,
-JALABHAR XHO, an exiled prince from the Summer Isles,
-MOON BOY, a jester and fool,
-LADY TANDA STOKEWORTH,
-FALYSE, her elder daughter,
-LOLLYS, her younger daughter, a maiden of thirty-three years,
-LORD GYLES ROSBY,
-SER HORAS REDWYNE and his twin SER HOBBER REDWYNE, sons of the Lord of
the Arbor,
-the people of King's Landing:
-the City Watch (the "gold cloaks"):
-JANOS SLYNT, Lord of Harrenhal, Lord Commander,
-MORROS, his eldest son and heir,
-ALLAR DEEM, Slynt's chief sergeant,
-SER JACELYN BYWATER, called IRONHAND, captain of the River Gate,
-HALLYNE THE PYROMANCER, a Wisdom of the Guild of Alchemists,
-CHATAYA, owner of an expensive brothel,
-ALAYAYA, DANCY, MAREI, some of her girls,
-TOBHO MOTT, a master armorer,
-SALLOREON, a master armorer,
-IRONBELLY, a blacksmith,
-LOTHAR BRUNE, a freerider,
-SER OSMUND KETTLEBLACK, a hedge knight of unsavory reputation,


-OSFRYD and OSNEY KETTLEBLACK, his brothers,
-SYMON SILVER TONGUE, a singer.
King Joffrey's banner shows the crowned stag of Baratheon, black on gold, and the lion of Lannister,
gold on crimson, combatant.
THE KING IN THE NARROW SEA
STANNIS BARATHEON, the First of His Name, the older of King Robert's brothers, formerly Lord
of Dragonstone, secondborn son of Lord Steffon Baratheon and Lady Cassana of House Estermont,
-his wife, LADY SELYSE of House Florent,
-SHIREEN, their only child, a girl of ten,
-his uncle and cousins:
-SER LOMAS ESTERMONT, an uncle,
-his son, SER ANDREW ESTERMONT, a cousin,
-his court and retainers:
-MAESTER CRESSEN, healer and tutor, an old man,
-MAESTER PYLOS, his young successor,
-SEPTON BARRE,
-SER AXELL FLORENT, castellan of Dragonstone, and uncle to Queen Selyse,
-PATCHFACE, a lackwit fool,
-LADY MELISANDRE OF ASSHAI, called the RED WOMAN, a priestess of R'hllor, the
Heart of Fire,
-SER DAVOS SEAWORTH, called the ONION KNIGHT and sometimes SHORTHAND,
once a smuggler, captain of Black Betha,
-his wife MARYA, a carpenter's daughter,
-their seven sons:
-DALE, captain of the Wraith,


-ALLARD, captain of the Lady Marya,
-MATTHOS, second of Black Betha,
-MARIC, oarmaster of Fury,
-DEVAN, squire to King Stannis,
-STANNIS, a boy of nine years,
-STEFFON, a boy of six years,
-BRYEN FARRING, squire to King Stannis,
-his lords bannermen and sworn swords,
-ARDRLA,N CELTIGAR, Lord of Claw Isle, an old man,
-MONFORD VELARYON, Lord of the Tides and Master of Driftmark,
-DURAM BAR EMMON, Lord of Sharp Point, a boy of fourteen years,
-GUNCER SUNGLASS, Lord of Sweetport Sound,
-SER HUBARD RAMBTON,
-SALLADHOR SAAN, of the Free City of Lys, styled Prince of the Narrow Sea,
-MOROSH THE MYRMAN, a sellsail admiral.
King Stannis has taken for his banner the fiery heart of the Lord of Light; a red heart surrounded by
orange flames upon a bright yellow field. Within the heart is pictured the crowned stag of House
Baratheon, in black.
THE KING IN HIGHGARDEN
RENLY BARATHEON, the First of His Name, the younger of King Robert's brothers, formerly Lord
of Storm's End, thirdborn son of Lord Steffon Baratheon and Lady Cassana of House Estermont,
-his new bride, LADY MARGAERY of House Tyrell, a maid of fifteen years,
-his uncle and cousins:
-SER ELDON ESTERMONT, an uncle,


-Ser Eldon's son, SER AEMON ESTERMONT, a cousin,
-Ser Aemon's son, SER ALYN ESTERMONT,
-his lords bannermen:
-MACE TYRELL, Lord of Highgarden and Hand of the King,
-RANDYLL TARLY, Lord of Horn Hill,
-MATHIS ROWAN, Lord of Goldengrove,
-BRYCE CARON, Lord of the Marches,
-SHYRA ERROL, Lady of Haystack Hall,
-ARWYN OAKHEART, Lady of Old Oak,
-ALESTER FLORENT, Lord of Brightwater Keep,
-LORD SELWYN OF TARTH, called the EVENSTAR,
-LEYTON HIGHTOWER, Voice of Oldtown, Lord of the Port,
-LORD STEFFON VARNER,
-his Rainbow Guard:
-SER LORAS TYRELL, the Knight of Flowers, Lord Commander,
-LORD BRYCE CARON, the Orange,
-SER GUYARD MORRIGEN, the Green,
-SER PARMEN CRANE, the Purple,
-SER ROBAR ROYCE, the Red,
-SER EMMON CUY, the Yellow,
-BRIENNE OF TARTH, the Blue, also called BRIENNE THE BEAUTY, daughter to Lord
Selwyn the Evenstar,
-his knights and sworn swords:
-SER CORTNAY PENROSE, castellan of Storm's End,
-Ser Cortnay's ward, EDRIC STORM, a bastard son of King Robert by Lady Delena of
House Florent,
-SER DONNEL SWANN, heir to Stonehelm,


-SER JON FOSSOWAY, of the green-apple Fossoways,
-SER BRYAN FOSSOWAY, SER TANTON FOSSOWAY, and SER EDWYD
FOSSOWAY, of the red-apple Fossoways,
-SER COLEN OF GREENPOOLS,
-SER MARK MULLENDORE,
-RED RONNET, the Knight of Griffin's Roost,
-his household,
-MAESTER JURNE, counselor, healer, and tutor.
King Renly's banner is the crowned stag of House Baratheon of Storm's End, black upon a gold field,
the same banner flown by his brother King Robert.
THE KING IN THE NORTH
ROBB STARK, Lord of Winterfell and King in the North, eldest son of Eddard Stark, Lord of
Winterfell, and Lady Catelyn of House Tully, a boy of fifteen years,
-his direwolf, GREY WIND,
-his mother, LADY CATELYN, of House Tully,
-his siblings:
-PRINCESS SANSA, a maid of twelve,
-Sansa's direwolf, {LADY}, killed at Castle Darry,
-PRINCESS ARYA, a girl of ten,
-Arya's direwolf, NYMERIA, driven off a year past,
-PRINCE BRANDON, called Bran, heir to Winterfell and the North, a boy of eight,
-Bran's direwolf, SUMMER,
-PRINCE RICKON, a boy of four,


-Rickon's direwolf, SHAGGYDOG,
-his half brother, JON SNOW, a bastard of fifteen years, a man of the Night's Watch,
-Jon's direwolf, GHOST,
-his uncles and aunts:
-{BRANDON STARK}, Lord Eddard's elder brother, slain at the command of King Aerys
II Targaryen,
-BENJEN STARK, Lord Eddard's younger brother, a man of the Night's Watch, lost beyond
the Wall,
-LYSA ARRYN, Lady Catelyn's younger sister, widow of {Lord Jon Arryn}, Lady of the
Eyrie,
-SER EDMURE TULLY, Lady Catelyn's younger brother, heir to Riverrun,
-SER BRYNDEN TULLY, called the BLACKFISH, Lady Catelyn's uncle,
-his sworn swords and battle companions:
-THEON GREYJOY, Lord Eddard's ward, heir to Pyke and the Iron islands,
-HALLIS MOLLEN, captain of guards for Winterfell,
-JACKS, QUENT, SHADD, guardsmen under Mollen's command,
-SER WENDEL MANDERLY, second son to the Lord of White Harbor,
-PATREK MALLISTER, heir to Seagard,
-DACEY MORMONT, eldest daughter of Lady Maege and heir to Bear Island,
-JON UMBER, called the SMALLJON,
-ROBIN FLINT, SER PERWYN FREY, LUCAS BLACKWOOD,
-his squire, OLYVAR FREY, eighteen,
-the household at Riverrun:
-MAESTER LUWIN, counselor, healer, and tutor,
-SER DESMOND GRELL, master-at-arms,
-SER ROBIN RYGER, captain of the guard,
-UTHERYDES WAYN, steward of Riverrun,


-RYMUND THE RHYMER, a singer,
-the household at Winterfell:
-MAESTER LUWIN, counselor, healer, and tutor,
-SER RODRIK CASSEL, master-at-arms,
-BETH, his young daughter,
-WALDER FREY, called BIG WALDER, a ward of Lady Catelyn, eight years of age,
-WALDER FREY, called LITTLE WALDER, a ward of Lady Catelyn, also eight,
-SEPTON CHAYLE, keeper of the castle sept and library,
-JOSETH, master of horse,
-BANDY and SHYRA, his twin daughters,
-FARLEN, kennelmaster,
-PALLA, a kennel girl,
-OLD NAN, storyteller, once a wet nurse, now very aged,
-HODOR, her great-grandson, a simpleminded stableboy,
-GAGE, the cook,
-TURNIP, a pot girl and scullion,
-OSHA, a wildling woman taken captive in the wolfswood, serving as kitchen drudge,
-MIKKEN, smith and armorer,
-HAYHEAD, SKITTRICK, POXY TYM, ALEBELLY, guardsmen,
-CALON, TOM, children of guardsmen,
-his lords bannermen and commanders:
-(with Robb at Riverrun)
-JON UMBER, called the GREATJON,
-RICKARD KARSTARK, Lord of Karhold,
-GALBART GLOVER, of Deepwood Motte,


-MAEGE MORMONT, Lady of Bear Island,
-SER STEVRON FREY, eldest son of Lord Walder Frey and heir to the Twins,
-Ser Stevron's eldest son, SER RYMAN FREY,
-Ser Ryman's son, BLACK WALDER FREY,
-MARTYN RIVERS, a bastard son of Lord Walder Frey,
-(with Roose Bolton's host at the Twins),
-ROOSE BOLTON, Lord of the Dreadfort, commanding the larger part of the northern host,
-ROBETT GLOVER, of Deepwood Motte,
-WALDER FREY, Lord of the Crossing,
-SER HEIMAN TALLHART, of Torrhen's Square,
-SER AENYS FREY,
-(prisoners of Lord Tywin Lannister),
-LORD MEDGER CERWYN,
-HARRION KARSTARK, sole surviving son of Lord Rickard,
-SER WYLIS MANDERLY, heir to White Harbor,
-SER JARED FREY, SER HOSTEEN FREY, SER DANWELL FREY, and their bastard
half brother, RONEL RIVERS,
-(in the field or at their own castles),
-LYMAN DARRY, a boy of eight,
-SHELLA WHENT, Lady of Harrenhal, dispossessed of her castle by Lord Tywin Lannister,
-JASON MALLISTER, Lord of Seagard,
-JONOS BRACKEN, Lord of the Stone Hedge,
-TYTOS BLACKWOOD, Lord of Raventree,
-LORD KARYL VANCE,
-SER MARQ PIPER,
-SER HALMON PAEGE,


-his lord bannermen and castellans in the north:
-WYMAN MANDERLY, Lord of White Harbor,
-HOWLAND REED of Greywater Watch, a crannogman,
-Howland's daughter, MEERA, a maid of fifteen,
-Howland's son, JOJEN, a boy of thirteen,
-LADY DONELLA HORNWOOD, a widow and grieving mother,
-CLEY CERWYN, Lord Medger's heir, a boy of fourteen,
-LEOBALD TALLHART, younger brother to Ser Helman, castellan at Torrhen's Square,
-Leobald's wife, BERENA of House Hornwood,
-Leobald's son, BRANDON, a boy of fourteen,
-Leobald's son, BEREN, a boy of ten,
-Ser Helman's son, BENFRED, heir to Torrhen's Square,
-Ser Helman's daughter, EDDARA, a maid of nine,
-LADY SYBELLE, wife to Robett Glover, holding Deepwood Motte in his absence,
-Robett's son, GAWEN, three, heir to Deepwood,
-Robett's daughter, ERENA, a babe of one,
-LARENCE SNOW, a bastard son of Lord Hornwood, aged twelve, ward of
Galbart Glover,
-MORS CROWFOOD and HOTHER WHORESBANE of House Umber, uncles to the
Greatjon,
-LADY LYESSA FLINT, mother to Robin,
-ONDREW LOCKE, Lord of Oldcastle, an old man.
The banner of the King in the North remains as it has for thousands of years: the grey direwolf of the
Starks of Winterfell, running across an ice-white field.


THE QUEEN ACROSS THE WATER
DAENERYS TARGARYEN, called Daenerys Stormborn, the Unburnt, Mother of Dragons, Khaleesi
of the Dothraki, and First of Her Name, sole surviving child of King Aerys II Targaryen by his sister/wife,
Queen Rhaella, a widow at fourteen years,
-her new-hatched dragons, DROGON, VISERION, RHAEGAL,
-her brothers:
-{RHAEGAR}, Prince of Dragonstone and heir to the Iron Throne, slain by King Robert on
the Trident,
-{RHAENYS}, Rhaegar's daughter by Elia of Dorne, murdered during the Sack of
King's Landing,
-{AEGON}, Rhaegar's son by Elia of Dorne, murdered during the Sack of King's
Landing,
-{VISERYS}, styling himself King Viserys, the Third of His Name, called the Beggar King,
slain in Vaes Dothrak by the hand of Khal Drogo,
-her husband {DROGO}, a khal of the Dothraki, died of wounds gone bad,
-{RHAEGO}, stillborn son of Daenerys and Khal Drogo, slain in the womb by Mirri Maz
Duur,
-her Queensguard:
-SER JORAH MORMONT, an exile knight, once Lord of Bear Island,
-JHOGO, ko and bloodrider, the whip,
-AGGO, ko and bloodrider, the bow,
-RAKHARO, ko and bloodrider, the arakh,
-her handmaids:
-IRRI, a Dothraki girl,
-JHIQUI, a Dothraki girl,
-DOREAH, a Lyseni slave, formerly a whore,
-the three seekers:
-XARO XHOAN DAXOS, a merchant prince of Qarth,


-PYAT PREE, a warlock of Qarth,
-QUAITHE, a masked shadowbinder of Asshai,
-ILLYRIO MOPATIS, a magister of the Free City of Pentos, who arranged to wed Daenerys to Khal
Drogo and conspired to restore Viserys to the Iron Throne.
The banner of the Targaryens is the banner of Aegon the Conqueror, who conquered six of Seven
Kingdoms, founded the dynasty, and made the Iron Throne from the swords of his conquered enemies: a
three-headed dragon, red on black.
OTHER HOUSES GREAT AND SMALL
HOUSE ARRYN
House Arryn declared for none of the rival claimants at the outbreak of the war, and kept its strength
back to protect the Eyrie and the Vale of Arryn. The Arryn sigil is the moon-and-falcon, white, upon a
sky-blue field. Their Arryn words are As High As Honor.
ROBERT ARRYN, Lord of the Eyrie, Defender of the Vale, Warden of the East, a sickly boy of eight
years,
-his mother, LADY LYSA, of House Tully, third wife and widow of {Lord Jon Arryn}, late Hand of the
King, and sister to Catelyn Stark,
-his household:
-MAESTER COLEMON, counselor, healer, and tutor,
-SER MARWYN BELMORE, captain of guards,
-LORD NESTOR ROYCE, High Steward of the Vale,
-Lord Nestor's son, SER ALBAR,
-MYA STONE, a bastard girl in his service, natural daughter of King Robert,
-MORD, a brutal gaoler,
-MARILLION, a young singer,


-his lords bannermen, suitors, and retainers:
-LORD YOHN ROYCE, called BRONZE YOHN,
-Lord Yohn's eldest son, SER ANDAR,
-Lord Yohn's second son, SER ROBAR, in service to King Renly, Robar the Red
of the Rainbow Guard,
-Lord Yohn's youngest son, {SER WAYMAR}, a man of the Night's Watch, lost
beyond the Wall,
-LORD NESTOR ROYCE, brother of Lord Yohn, High Steward of the Vale,
-Lord Nestor's son and heir, SER ALBAR,
-Lord Nestor's daughter, MYRANDA,
-SER LYN CORBRAY, a suitor to Lady Lysa,
-MYCHEL REDFORT, his squire,
-LADY ANYA WAYNWOOD,
-Lady Anya's eldest son and heir, SER MORTON, a suitor to Lady Lysa,
-Lady Anya's second son, SER DONNEL, the Knight of the Gate,
-EON HUNTER, Lord of Longbow Hall, an old man, and a suitor to Lady Lysa.
HOUSEFLORENT
The Florents of Brightwater Keep are sworn bannermen to Highgarden, and followed the Tyrells in
declaring for King Renly. They also kept a foot in the other camp, however, since Stannis's queen is a
Florent, and her uncle the castellan of Dragonstone. The sigil of House Florent shows a fox head in a
circle of flowers.
ALESTER FLORENT, Lord of Brightwater,
-his wife, LADY MELARA, of House Crane,
-their children:
-ALEKYNE, heir to Brightwater,


-MELESSA, wed to Lord Randyll Tarly,
-RHEA, wed to Lord Leyton Hightower,
-his siblings:
-SER AXELL, castellan of Dragonstone,
-{SER RYAM}, died in a fall from a horse,
-Ser Ryam's daughter, QUEEN SELYSE, wed to King Stannis,
-Ser Ryam's eldest son and heir, SER IMRY,
-Ser Ryam's second son, SER ERREN,
-SER COLIN,
-Colin's daughter, DELENA, wed to SER HOSMAN NORCROSS,
-Delena's son, EDRIC STORM, a bastard fathered by King Robert,
-Delena's son, ALESTER NORCROSS,
-Delena's son, RENLY NORCROSS,
-Colin's son, MAESTER OMER, in service at Old Oak,
-Colin's son, MERRELL, a squire on the Arbor,
-his sister, RYLENE, wed to Ser Rycherd Crane.
HOUSE FREY
Powerful, wealthy, and numerous, the Freys are bannermen to House Tully, their swords sworn to the
service of Riverrun, but they have not always been diligent in performing their duty. When Robert
Baratheon met Rhaegar Targaryen on the Trident, the Freys did not arrive until the battle was done, and
thereafter Lord Hoster Tully always called Lord Walder "the Late Lord Frey." Lord Frey agreed to
support the cause of the King in the North only after Robb Stark agreed to a betrothal, promising to
marry one of his daughters or granddaughters after the war was done. Lord Walder has known
ninety-one name days, but only recently took his eighth wife, a girl seventy years his junior. It is said of
him that he is the only lord in the Seven Kingdoms who could field an army out of his breeches.
WALDER FREY, Lord of the Crossing,
-by his first wife, {LADY PERRA, of House Royce}:


-SER STEVRON, heir to the Twins,
-m. {Corenna Swann, died of a wasting illness},
-Stevron's eldest son, SER RYMAN,
-Ryman's son, EDWYN, wed to Janyce Hunter,
-Edwyn's daughter, WALDA, a girl of eight,
-Ryman's son, WALDER, called BLACK WALDER,
-Ryman's son, PETYR, called PETYR PIMPLE,
-m. Mylenda Caron,
-Petyr's daughter, PERRA, a girl of five,
-m. {Jeyne Lydden, died in a fall from a horse},
-Stevron's son, AEGON, a halfwit called JINGLEBELL,
-Stevron's daughter, {MAEGELLE, died in childbed},
-m. Ser Dafyn Vance,
-Maegelle's daughter, MARIANNE, a maiden,
-Maegelle's son, WALDER VANCE, a squire,
-Maegelle's son, PATREK VANCE,
-m. {Marsella Waynwood, died in childbed},
-Stevron's son, WALTON, w. Deana Hardyng,
-Walton's son, STEFFON, called THE SWEET,
-Walton's daughter, WALDA, called FAIR WALDA,
-Walton's son, BRYAN, a squire,
-SER EMMON, m. Genna of House Lannister,
-Emmon's son, SER CLEOS, m. Jeyne Darry,
-Cleos's son, TYWIN, a squire of eleven,
-Cleos's son, WILLEM, a page at Ashemark,
-Emmon's son, SER LYONEL, m. Melesa Crakehall,


-Emmon's son, TION, a squire captive at Riverrun,
-Emmon's son, WALDER, called RED WALDER, a page at Casterly Rock,
-SER AENYS, m. {Tyana Wylde, died in childbed},
-Aenys's son, AEGON BLOODBORN, an outlaw,
-Aenys's son, RHAEGAR, m. Jeyne Beesbury,
-Rhaegar's son, ROBERT, a boy of thirteen,
-Rhaegar's daughter, WALDA, a girl of ten, called WHITE WALDA,
-Rhaegar's son, JONOS, a boy of eight,
-PERRIANE, m. Ser Leslyn Haigh,
-Perriane's son, SER HARYS HAIGH,
-Harys's son, WALDER HAIGH, a boy of four,
-Perriane's son, SER DONNEL HAIGH,
-Perriane's son, ALYN HAIGH, a squire,
-by his second wife, {LADY CYRENNA, of House Swann}:
-SER JARED, their eldest son, m. {Alys Frey},
-Jared's son, SER TYTOS, m. Zhoe Blanetree,
-Tytos's daughter, ZIA, a maid of fourteen,
-Tytos's son, ZACHERY, a boy of twelve, training at the Sept of
Oldtown,
-Jared's daughter, KYRA, m. Ser Garse Goodbrook,
-Kyra's son, WALDER GOODBROOK, a boy of nine,
-Kyra's daughter, JEYNE GOODBROOK, six,
-SEPTON LUCEON, in service at the Great Sept of Baelor in King's Landing,
-by his third wife, {LADY AMAREI of House Crakeball}:


-SER HOSTEEN, their eldest son, m. Bellena Hawick,
-Hosteen's son, SER ARWOOD, m. Ryella Royce,
-Arwood's daughter, RYELLA, a girl of five,
-Arwood's twin sons, ANDROW and ALYN, three,
-LADY LYTHENE, m. Lord Lucias Vypren,
-Lythene's daughter, ELYANA, m. Ser Jon Wylde,
-Elyana's son, RICKARD VVYLDE, four,
-Lythene's son, SER DAMON VYPREN,
-SYMOND, m. Betharios of Braavos,
-Symond's son, ALESANDER, a singer,
-Symond's daughter, ALYX, a maid of seventeen,
-Symond's son, BRADAMAR, a boy of ten, fostered on Braavos as a ward of
Oro Tendyris, a merchant of that city,
-SER DANWELL, m. Wynafrei Whent,
-(many stillbirths and miscarriages),
-MERRETT, m. Mariya Darry,
-Merrett's daughter, AMEREI, called AMI, a widow of sixteen, m. {Ser Pate of
the Blue Fork},
-Merrett's daughter, WALDA, called FAT WALDA, a maid of fifteen years,
-Merrett's daughter, MARISSA, a maid of thirteen,
-Merrett's son, WALDER, called LITTLE WALDER, a boy of eight, fostered at
Winterfell as a ward of Lady Catelyn Stark,
-{SER GEREMY, drowned}, m. Carolei Waynwood,
-Geremy's son, SANDOR, a boy of twelve, a squire to Ser Donnel Waynwood,
-Geremy's daughter, CYNTHEA, a girl of nine, a ward of Lady Anya. Waynwood,
-SER RAYMUND, m. Beony Beesbury,
-Raymund's son, ROBERT, sixteen, in training at the Citadel in Oldtown,


-Raymund's son, MALVVYN, fifteen, apprenticed to an alchemist in Lys,
-Raymund's twin daughters, SERRA and SARRA, maiden girls of fourteen,
-Raymund's daughter, CERSEI, six, called LITTLE BEE,
-by his fourth wife, {LADY ALYSSA, of House Blackwood}:
-LOTHAR, their eldest son, called LAME LOTHAR, m. Leonella Lefford,
-Lothar's daughter, TYSANE, a girl of seven,
-Lothar's daughter, WALDA, a girl of four,
-Lothar's daughter, EMBERLEI, a girl of two,
-SER JAMMOS, m. Sallei Paege,
-Jammos's son, WALDER, called BIG WALDER, a boy of eight, fostered at
Winterfell as a ward of Lady Catelyn Stark,
-Jammos's twin sons, DICKON and MATHIS, five,
-SER WHALEN, m. Sylwa Paege,
-Whalen's son, HOSTER, a boy of twelve, a squire to Ser Damon Paege,
-Whalen's daughter, MERIANNE, called MERRY, a girl of eleven,
-LADY MORYA, m. Ser Flement Brax,
-Morya's son, ROBERT BRAX, nine, fostered at Casterly Rock as a page,
-Morya's son, WALDER BRAX, a boy of six,
-Morya's son, JON BRAX, a babe of three,
-TYTA, called T`YTA THE MAID, a maid of twenty-nine,
-by his fifth wife, {LADY SARYA of House Whent}:
-no progeny,
-by his sixth wife, {LADY BETHANY of House Rosby}:


-SER PERWYN, their eldest son,
-SER BENFREY, m. Jyanna Frey, a cousin,
-Benfrey's daughter, DELLA, called DEAF DELLA, a girl of three,
-Benfrey's son, OSMUND, a boy of two,
-MAESTER WILLAMEN, in service at Longbow Hall,
-OLYVAR, a squire in the service of Robb Stark,
-ROSLIN, a maid of sixteen,
-by his seventh wife, {LADY ANNARA of House Farring}:
-ARWYN, a maid of fourteen,
-WENDEL, their eldest son, a boy of thirteen, fostered at Seagard as a page,
-COLMAR, promised to the Faith, eleven,
-WALTYR, called TYR, a boy of ten,
-ELMAR, betrothed to Arya Stark, a boy of nine,
-SHIREI, a girl of six,
-his eighth wife, LADY JOYEUSE of House Erenford,
-no progeny as yet,
-Lord Walder's natural children, by sundry mothers,
-WALDER RIVERS, called BASTARD WALDER,
-Bastard Walder's son, SER AEMON RIVERS,
-Bastard Walder's daughter, WALDA RIVERS,
-MAESTER MELWYS, in service at Rosby,
-JEYNE RIVERS, MARTYN RIVERS, RYGER RIVERS, RONEL RIVERS, MELLARA
RIVERS, others.


HOUSE GREYJOY
Balon Greyjoy, Lord of the Iron Islands, previously led a rebellion against the Iron Throne, put down by
King Robert and Lord Eddard Stark. Though his son Theon, raised at Winterfell, was one of Robb
Stark's supporters and closest companions, Lord Balon did not join the northmen when they marched
south into the riverlands.
The Greyjoy sigil is a golden kraken upon a black field. Their words are We Do Not Sow
BALON GREYJOY, Lord of the Iron islands, King of Salt and Rock, Son of the Sea Wind, Lord
Reaper of Pyke, captain of the Great Kraken,
-his wife, LADY ALANNYS, of House Harlaw,
-their children:
-{RODRIK}, slain at Seagard during Greyjoy's Rebellion,
-{MARON}, slain at Pyke during Greyjoy's Rebellion,
-ASHA, captain of the Black Wind,
-THEON, a ward of Lord Eddard Stark at Winterfell,
-his brothers:
-EURON, called CROW'S EYE, captain of the Silence, an outlaw, pirate, and raider,
-VICTARION, Lord Captain of the Iron Fleet, master of the Iron Victory,
-AERON, called DAMPHAIR, a priest of the Drowned God,
-his household on Pyke:
-DAGMER called CLEFTJAW, master-at-arms, captain of the Foarndrinker,
-MAESTER WENDAMYR, healer and counselor
-HELYA, keeper of the castle,


-people of Lordsport:
-SIGRIN, a shipwright,
-his lords bannermen,
-LORD BOTLEY, of Lordsport,
-LORD WYNCH, of Iron Holt,
-LORD HARLAW, of Harlaw,
-STONEHOUSE, of Old Wyk,
-DRUMM, of Old Wyk,
-GOODBROTHER, of Old Wyk,
-GOODBROTHER, of Great Wyk,
-LORD MERLYN, of Great Wyk,
-SPARR, of Great Wyk,
-LORD BLACKTYDE, of Blacktyde,
-LORD SALTCLIFFE, of Saltcliffe,
-LORD SUNDERLY, of Saltcliffe.
HOUSE LANNISTER
The Lannisters of Casterly Rock remain the principal support of King joffrey's claim to the Iron Throne.
Their sigil is a golden lion upon a crimson field. The Lannister words are Hear Me Roar!
TYWIN LANNISTER, Lord of Casterly Rock, Warden of the West, Shield of Lannisport, and Hand
of the King, commanding the Lannister host at Harrenhal,
-his wife, {LADY JOANNA}, a cousin, died in childbed,
-their children:
-SER JAIME, called the Kingslayer, Warden of the East and Lord Commander of the
Kingsguard, a twin to Queen Cersei,


-QUEEN CERSEI, widow of King Robert, twin to Jaime, Queen Regent and Protector of the
Realm,
-TYRION, called the IMP, a dwarf,
-his siblings:
-SER KEVAN, his eldest brother,
-Ser Kevan's wife, DORNA, of House Swyft,
-Lady Dorna's father, SER HARYS SwYFT,
-their children:
-SER LANCEL, formerly a squire to King Robert, knighted after his death,
-WILLEM, twin to Martyn, a squire, taken captive at the Whispering Wood,
-MARTYN, twin to Willem, a squire,
-JANEI, a girl of two,
-GENNA, his sister, wed to Ser Emmon Frey,
-Genna's son, SER CLEOS FREY, taken captive at the Whispering Wood,
-Genna's son, TION FREY, a squire, taken captive at the Whispering Wood,
-{SER TYGETT}, his second brother, died of a pox,
-Tygett's widow, DARLESSA, of House Marbrand,
-Tygett's son, TYREK, squire to the king,
-{GERION}, his youngest brother, lost at sea,
-Gerion's bastard daughter, JOY, eleven,
-his cousin, SER STAFFORD LANNISTER, brother to the late Lady Joanna,
-Ser Stafford's daughters, CERENNA and MYRIELLE,
-Ser Stafford's son, SER DAVEN,
-his lord bannermen, captains, and commanders:
-SER ADDAM MARBRAND, heir to Ashemark, commander of Lord Tywin's outriders and
scouts,
-SER GREGOR CLEGANE, the Mountain That Rides,


-POLLIVER, CHISWYCK, RAFF THE SWEETLING, DUNSEN, and THE TICKLER,
soldiers in his service,
-LORD LEO LEFFORD,
-SER AMORY LORCH, a captain of foragers,
-LEWYS LYDDEN, Lord of the Deep Den,
-GAWEN WESTERLING, Lord of the Crag, taken captive in the Whispering Wood and
held at Seagard,
-SER ROBERT BRAX, and his brother,
-SER FLEMENT BRAX,
-SER FORLEY PRESTER, of the Golden Tooth,
-VARGO HOAT, of the Free City of Qohor, captain of the sellsword company called the
Brave Companions,
-MAESTER CREYLEN, his counselor.
HOUSE MARTELL
Dorne was the last of the Seven Kingdoms to swear fealty to the Iron Throne. Blood, custom, and
history all set the Dornishmen apart from the other kingdoms. When the war of succession broke out, the
Prince of Dorne kept his silence and took no part.
The Martell banner is a red sun pierced by a golden spear. Their words are
Unbowed, Unbent, Unbroken.
DORAN NYMEROS MARTELL, Lord of Sunspear, Prince of Dorne,
-his wife, MELLARIO, of the Free City of Norvos,
-their children:
-PRINCESS ARIANNE, their eldest daughter, heir to Sunspear,
-PRINCE QUENTYN, their eldest son,


-PRINCE TRYSTANE, their younger son,
-his siblings:
-his sister, {PRINCESS ELIA}, wed to Prince Rhaegar Targaryen, slain during the Sack of
King's Landing,
-Elia's daughter, {PRINCESS RHAENYS}, a young girl murdered during the
Sack of King's Landing,
-Elia's son, {PRINCE AEGON}, a babe, murdered during the Sack of King's
Landing,
-his brother, PRINCE OBERYN, the Red Viper,
-his household:
-AREO HOTAH, a Norvoshi sellsword, captain of guards,
-MAESTER CALEOTTE, counselor, healer, and tutor,
-his lords bannermen:
-EDRIC DAYNE, Lord of Starfall.
The principal houses sworn to Sunspear include Jordayne, Santagar, Allyrion, Toland, Yronwood, Wyl,
Fowler, and Dayne.
HOUSE TYRELL
Lord Tyrell of Highgarden declared his support for King Renly after Renly's marriage to his daughter
Margaery, and brought most of his principal bannermen to Renly's cause. The Tyrell sigil is a golden rose
on a grass-green field. Their words are Growing Strong.
MACE TYRELL, Lord of Highgarden, Warden of the South, Defender of the Marches, High Marshal
of the Reach, and Hand of the King,
-his wife, LADY ALERIE, of House Hightower of Oldtown,
-their children:
-WILLAS, their eldest son, heir to Highgarden,


-SER GARLAN, called the GALLANT, their second son,
-SER LORAS, the Knight of Flowers, their youngest son, Lord Commander of the Rainbow
Guard,
-MARGAERY, their daughter, a maid of fifteen years, recently wed to Renly Baratheon,
-his widowed mother, LADY OLENNA of House Redwyne, called the QUEEN OF THORNS,
-his sisters:
-MINA, wed to Paxter Redwyne, Lord of the Arbor,
-their children:
-SER HORAS REDWYNE, twin to Hobber, mocked as HORROR,
-SER HOBBER REDWYNE, twin to Horas, mocked as SLOBBER,
-DESMERA REDWYNE, a maid of sixteen,
-JANNA, wed to Ser Jon Fossoway,
-his uncles:
-GARTH, called the GROSS, Lord Seneschal of Highgarden,
-Garth's bastard sons, GARSE and GARRETT FLOWERS,
-SER MORYN, Lord Commander of the City Watch of Oldtown,
-MAESTER GORMON, a scholar of the Citadel,
-his household:
-MAESTER LOMYS, counselor, healer, and tutor,
-IGON VYRWEL, captain of the guard,
-SER VORTIMER CRANE, master-at-arms,
-BUTTERBUMPS, fool and jester, hugely fat.
THE MEN OF THE NIGHT'S WATCH
The Night's Watch protects the realm, and is sworn to take no part in civil wars and contests for the
throne. Traditionally, in times of rebellion, they do honor to all kings and obey none.


At Castle Black
JEOR MORMONT, Lord Commander of the Night's Watch, called the OLD BEAR,
-his steward and squire, JON SNOW, the bastard of Winterfell, called LORD SNOW,
-Jon's white direwolf, GHOST,
-MAESTER AEMON (TARGARYEN), counselor and healer,
-SAMWELL TARLY and CLYDAS, his stewards,
-BENJEN STARK, First Ranger, lost beyond the Wall,
-THOREN SMALLWOOD, a senior ranger,
-JARMEN BUCKWELL, a senior ranger,
-SER OTTYN WYTHERS, SER ALADALE WYNCH, GRENN, PYPAR,
MATTHAR, ELRON, LARK called the SISTERMAN, rangers,
-OTHELL YARWYCK, First Builder,
-HALDER, ALBETT, builders,
-BOWEN MARSH, Lord Steward
-CHETT, steward and dog handler,
-EDDISON TOLLETT, called DOLOROUS EDD, a dour squire,
-SEPTON CELLADAR, a drunken devout,
-SER ENDREW TARTH, master-at-arms,
-brothers of Castle Black:
-DONAL NOYE, armorer and smith, one-armed,
-THREE-FINGER HOBB, cook,
-JEREN, RAST, CUGEN, recruits still in training,
-CONWY, GUEREN, "wandering crows," recruiters who collect orphan boys and
criminals for the Wall,
-YOREN, the senior of the "wandering crows,"


-PRAED, CUTJACK, WOTH, REYSEN, QYLE, recruits bound for the Wall,
-KOSS, GERREN, DOBBER, KURZ, BITER, RORGE, JAQEN HIGHAR,
criminals bound for the Wall,
-LOMMY GREENHANDS, GENDRY, TARBER, HOT PIE, ARRY, orphan
boys bound for the Wall.
At Eastwatch-by-the-Sea
COTTER PYKE, Commander, Eastwatch,
-SER ALLISER THORNE, master-at-arms,
-brothers of Eastwatch:
-DAREON, steward and singer.
At the Shadow Tower
SER DENYS MALLISTER, Commander, Shadow Tower,
-QHORIN called HALFHAND, a senior ranger,
-DALBRIDGE, an elderly squire and senior ranger,
-EBBEN, STONESNAKE, rangers.


A Storm Of Swords
Book Three of A Song of Ice and Fire
By George R.R. Martin
A NOTE ON CHRONOLOGY
A Song of Ice and Fire is told through the eyes of characters who are sometimes hundreds or even
thousands of miles apart from one another. Some chapters cover a day, some only an hour; others might
span a fortnight, a month, half a year. With such a structure, the narrative cannot be strictly sequential;
sometimes important things are happening simultaneously, a thousand leagues apart.
In the case of the volume now in hand, the reader should realize that the opening chapters of A Storm of
Swords do not follow the closing chapters of A Clash of Kings so much as overlap them. I open with a
look at some of the things that were happening on the Fist of the First Men, at Riverrun, Harrenhal, and
on the Trident while theBattleof the Blackwater was being fought at King's Landing, and during its
aftermath ...
GEORGE R. R. MARTIN
PROLOGUE
The day was grey and bitter cold, and the dogs would not take the scent.
The big black bitch had taken one sniff at the bear tracks, backed off, and skulked back to the pack


with her tail between her legs. The dogs huddled together miserably on the riverbank as the wind
snapped at them. Chett felt it too, biting through his layers of black wool and boiled leather. It was too
bloody cold for man or beast, but here they were. His mouth twisted, and he could almost feel the boils
that covered his cheeks and neck growing red and angry. I should be safe back at the Wall, tending the
bloodyravens and making fires for old MaesterAemon. It was the bastard Jon Snow who had taken that
from him, him and his fat friend Sam Tarly. it was their fault he was here, freezing his bloody balls off with
a pack of hounds deep in the haunted forest.
"Seven hells." He gave the leashes a hard yank to get the dogs' attention. "Track, you bastards. That's a
bear print. You want some meat or no? Find!" But the hounds only huddled closer, whining. Chett
snapped his short lash above their heads, and the black bitch snarled at him. "Dog meat would taste as
good as bear," he warned her, his breath frosting with every word.
Lark the Sisterman stood with his arms crossed over his chest and his hands tucked up into his armpits.
He wore black wool gloves, but he was always complaining how his fingers were frozen. "It's too bloody
cold to hunt," he said. "Bugger this bear, he's not worth freezing over."
"We can't go back emptyhand, Lark," rumbled Small Paul through the brown whiskers that covered
most of his face. "The Lord Commander
wouldn't like that." There was ice under the big man's squashed pug nose, where his snot had frozen. A
huge hand in a thick fur glove clenched tight around the shaft of a spear.
"Bugger that Old Bear too," said the Sisterman, a thin man with sharp features and nervous eyes.
"Mormont will be dead before daybreak, remember? Who cares what he likes?"
Small Paul blinked his black little eyes. Maybe he had forgotten, Chett thought; he was stupid enough to
forget most anything. "Why do we have to kill the Old Bear? Why don't we just go off and let him be?"
"You think he'll let us be?" said Lark. "He'll hunt us down. You want to be hunted, you great
muttonhead?"
"No," said Small Paul. "I don't want that. I don't."
"So you'll kill him?" said Lark.
"Yes." The huge man stamped the butt of his spear on the frozen riverbank. "I will. He shouldn't hunt us."
The Sisterman took his hands from his armpits and turned to Chett. "We need to kill all the officers, I
say."
Chett was sick of hearing it. "We been over this. The Old Bear dies, and Blane from theShadowTower.
Grubbs and Aethan as well, their ill luck for drawing the watch, Dywen and Barmen for their tracking,
and Ser Piggy for the ravens. That's all. We kill them quiet, while they sleep. One scream and we're
wormfood, every one of us." His boils were red with rage. "Just do your bit and see that your cousins do
theirs. And Paul, try and remember, it's third watch, not second."
"Third watch," the big man said, through hair and frozen snot. "Me and Softfoot. I remember, Chett."
The moon would be black tonight, and they had jiggered the watches so as to have eight of their own
standing sentry, with two more guarding the horses. It wasn't going to get much riper than that. Besides,


the wildlings could be upon them any day now. Chett meant to be well away from here before that
happened. He meant to live.
Three hundred sworn brothers of the Night's Watch had ridden north, two hundred from Castle Black
and another hundred from theShadowTower. It was the biggest ranging in living memory, near a third of
the Watch's strength. They meant to find Ben Stark, Ser Waymar Royce, and the other rangers who'd
gone missing, and discover why the wildlings were leaving their villages. Well, they were no closer to
Stark and Royce than when they'd left the Wall, but they'd learned where all the wildlings had gone - up
into the icy heights of the godsforsaken Frostfangs. They could squat up there till the end of time and it
wouldn't prick Chett's boils none.
But no. They were coming down. Down the Milkwater.
Chett raised his eyes and there it was. The river's stony banks were
bearded by ice, its pale milky waters flowing endlessly down out of the Frostfangs. And now Mance
Rayder and his wildlings were flowing down the same way. Thoren Smallwood had returned in a lather
three days past. While he was telling the Old Bear what his scouts had seen, his man Kedge Whiteye told
the rest of them. "They're still well up the foothills, but they're coming," Kedge said, warming his hands
over the fire. "Harma the Dogshead has the van, the poxy bitch. Goady crept up on her camp and saw
her plain by the fire. That fool Tumberjon wanted to pick her off with an arrow, but Smallwood had
better sense."
Chett spat. "How many were there, could you tell?"
"Many and more. Twenty, thirty thousand, we didn't stay to count. Harma had five hundred in the van,
every one ahorse."
The men around the fire exchanged uneasy looks. It was a rare thing to find even a dozen mounted
wildlings, and five hundred ...
"Smallwood sent Bannen and me wide around the van to catch a peek at the main body," Kedge went
on. "There was no end of them. They're moving slow as a frozen river, four, five miles a day, but they
don't look like they mean to go back to their villages neither. More'n half were women and children, and
they were driving their animals before them, goats, sheep, even aurochs dragging sledges. They'd loaded
up with bales of fur and sides of meat, cages of chickens, butter chums and spinning wheels, every damn
thing they own. The mules and garrons was so heavy laden you'd think their backs would break. The
women as well."
"And they follow the Milkwater?" Lark the Sisterman asked.
"I said so, didn't I?"
The Milkwater would take them past the Fist of the First Men, the ancient ringfort where the Night's
Watch had made its camp. Any man with a thimble of sense could see that it was time to pull up stakes
and fall back on the Wall. The Old Bear had strengthened the Fist with spikes and pits and caltrops, but
against such a host all that was pointless. If they stayed here, they would be engulfed and overwhelmed.
And Thoren Smallwood wanted to attack. Sweet Donnel Hill was squire to Ser Mallador Locke, and
the night before last Smallwood had come to Locke's tent. Ser Mallador had been of the same mind as
old Ser Ottyn Wythers, urging a retreat on the Wall, but Smallwood wanted to convince him otherwise.


"This King-beyond-the-Wall will never look for us so far north," Sweet Donnel reported him saying.
"And this great host of his is a shambling horde, full of useless mouths who won't know what end of a
sword to hold. One blow will take all the fight out of them and send them howling back to their hovels for
another fifty years."
Three hundred against thirty thousand. Chett called that rank madness, and what was madder still was
that Ser Mallador had been persuaded, and the two of them together were on the point of persuading
the Old Bear. "If we wait too Ion& this chance may be lost, never to come again," Smallwood was
saying to anyone who would listen. Against that, Ser Ottyn Wythers said, "We are the shield that guards
the realms of men. You do not throw away your shield for no good purpose," but to that Thoren
Smallwood said, "In a swordfight, a man's surest defense is the swift stroke that slays his foe, not cringing
behind a shield."
Neither Smallwood nor Wythers had the command, though. Lord Mormont did, and Mormont was
waiting for his other scouts, for Jarman Buckwell and the men who'd climbed the Giant's Stair, and for
Qhorin Halfhand and Jon Snow, who'd gone to probe theSkirlingPass.Buckwell and the Halfhand were
late in returning, though. Dead, most like. Chett pictured Jon Snow lying blue and frozen on some bleak
mountaintop with a wildling spear up his bastard's arse. The thought made him smile. I hope they killed
his bloody wolf as well.
"There's no bear here," he decided abruptly. "Just an old print, that's all. Back to the Fist." The dogs
almost yanked him off his feet, as eager to get back as he was. Maybe they thought they were going to
get fed. Chett had to laugh. He hadn't fed them for three days now, to turn them mean and hungry.
Tonight, before slipping off into the dark, he'd turn them loose among the horse lines, after Sweet Donnel
Hill and Clubfoot Karl cut the tethers. They'll have snarling hounds and panicked horses all over the Fist,
running through fires, jumping the ringwall, and trampling down tents. With all the confusion, it might be
hours before anyone noticed that fourteen brothers were missing.
Lark had wanted to bring in twice that number, but what could you expect from some stupid fishbreath
Sisterman? Whisper a word in the wrong ear and before you knew it you'd be short a head. No, fourteen
was a good number, enough to do what needed doing but not so many that they couldn't keep the secret.
Chett had recruited most of them himself. Small Paul was one of his; the strongest man on the Wall, even
if he was slower than a dead snail. He'd once broken a wildling's back with a hug. They had Dirk as well,
named for his favorite weapon, and the little grey man the brothers called Softfoot, who'd raped a
hundred women in his youth, and liked to boast how none had never seen nor heard him until he shoved
it up inside them.
The plan was Chett's. He was the clever one; he'd been steward to old Maester Aemon for four good
years before that bastard Jon Snow had done him out so his job could be handed to his fat pig of a
friend. When he killed Sam Tarly tonight, he planned to whisper, "Give my love to Lord Snow," right in
his ear before he sliced Ser Piggy's throat open to let the blood come bubbling out through all those
layers of suet. Chett knew the ravens, so he wouldn't have no trouble there, no more than he would with
Tarly. One touch of the knife and that craven would
piss his pants and start blubbering for his life. Let him beg, it won't do him no good. After he opened his
throat, he'd open the cages and shoo the birds away, so no messages reached the Wall. Softfoot and
Small Paul would kill the Old Bear, Dirk would do Blane, and Lark and his cousins would silence
Bannen and old Dywen, to keep them from sniffing after their trail. They'd been caching food for a
fortnight, and Sweet Donnel and Clubfoot Karl would have the horses ready. With Mormont dead,
command would pass to Ser Ottyn Wythers, an old done man, and failing. He'll be running for the Wall


before sundown, and he won't waste no men sending them after us neither.
The dogs pulled at him as they made their way through the trees. Chett could see the Fist punching its
way up through the green. The day was so dark that the Old Bear had the torches lit, a great circle of
them burning all along the ringwall that crowned the top of the steep stony hill. The three of them waded
across a brook. The water was icy cold, and patches of ice were spreading across its surface. "I'm going
to make for the coast," Lark the Sisterman confided. "Me and my cousins. We'll build us a boat, sail
back home to the Sisters."
And at home they'll know you for deserters and lop off your fool heads, thought Chett. There was no
leaving the Night's Watch, once you said your words. Anywhere in the Seven Kingdoms, they'd take you
and kill you.
Ollo Lophand now, he was talking about sailing back to Tyrosh, where he claimed men didn't lose their
hands for a bit of honest thievery, nor get sent off to freeze their life away for being found in bed with
some knight's wife. Chett had weighed going with him, but he didn't speak their wet girly tongue. And
what could he do in Tyrosh? He had no trade to speak of, growing up in Hag's Mire. His father had
spent his life grubbing in other men's fields and collecting leeches. He'd strip down bare but for a thick
leather clout, and go wading in the murky waters. When he climbed out he'd be covered from nipple to
ankle. Sometimes he made Chett help pull the leeches off. One had attached itself to his palm once, and
he'd smashed it against a wall in revulsion. His father beat him bloody for that. The maesters bought the
leeches at twelve-for-apenny.
Lark could go home if he liked, and the damn Tyroshi too, but not Chett. If he never saw Hag's Mire
again, it would be too bloody soon. He had liked the look of Craster's Keep, himself . Craster lived high
as a lord there, so why shouldn't he do the same? That would be a laugh. Chett the leechman's son, a
lord with a keep. His banner could be a dozen leeches on a field of pink. But why stop at lord? Maybe
he should be a king. Mance Rayder started out a crow. I could be a king same as him, and have me
some wives. Craster had nineteen, not even counting the
young ones, the daughters he hadn't gotten around to bedding yet. Half them wives were as old and ugly
as Craster, but that didn't matter. The old ones Chett could put to work cooking and cleaning for him,
pulling carrots and slopping pigs, while the young ones warmed his bed and bore his children. Craster
wouldn't object, not once Small Paul gave him a hug.
The only women Chett had ever known were the whores he'd bought in Mole's Town. When he'd been
younger, the village girls took one look at his face, with its boils and its wen, and turned away sickened.
The worst was that slattern Bessa. She'd spread her legs for every boy in Hag's Mire so he'd figured why
not him too? He even spent a morning picking wildflowers when he heard she liked them, but she'd just
laughed in his face and told him she'd crawl in a bed with his father's leeches before she'd crawl in one
with him. She stopped laughing when he put his knife in her. That was sweet, the look on her face, so he
pulled the knife out and put it in her again. When they caught him down near Sevenstrearns, old Lord
Walder Frey hadn't even bothered to come himself to do the judging. He'd sent one of his bastards, that
Walder Rivers, and the next thing Chett had known he was walking to the Wall with that foulsmelling
black devil Yoren. To pay for his one sweet moment, they took his whole life.
But now he meant to take it back, and Craster's women too. That twisted old wildling has the right of it.
If you want a woman to wife you take her, and none of this giving her flowers so that maybe she don't
notice your bloody boils. Chett didn't mean to make that mistake again.
It would work, he promised himself for the hundredth time. So long as we get away clean. Ser Ottyn


would strike south for the Shadow Tower, the shortest way to the Wall. He won't bother with us, not
Wythers, all he'll want is to get back whole. Thoren Smallwood now, he'd want to press on with the
attack, but Ser Ottyn's caution ran too deep, and he was senior. It won't matter anyhow Once we're
gone, Smallwood can attack anyone he likes. What do we care? If none of them ever returns to the Wall,
no one will ever come looking for us, they'll think we died with the rest. That was a new thought, and for
a moment it tempted him. But they would need to kill Ser Ottyn and Ser Mallador Locke as well to give
Smallwood the command, and both of them were well-attended day and night ... no, the risk was too
great.
"Chett," said Small Paul as they trudged along a stony game trail through sentinels and soldier pines,
"what about the bird?"
"What bloody bird?" The last thing he needed now was some muttonhead going on about a bird.
"The Old Bear's raven," Small Paul said. "if we kill him, who's going to feed his bird?"
"Who bloody well cares? Kill the bird too if you like."
"I don't want to hurt no bird," the big man said. "But that's a talking bird. What if it tells what we did?"
Lark the Sisterman laughed. "Small Paul, thick as a castle wall," he mocked.
"You shut up with that," said Small Paul dangerously.
"Paul," said Chett, before the big man got too angry, "when they find the old man lying in a pool of blood
with his throat slit, they won't need no bird to tell them someone killed him."
Small Paul chewed on that a moment. "That's true," he allowed. "Can I keep the bird, then? I like that
bird."
"He's yours," said Chett, just to shut him up.
"We can always eat him if we get hungry," offered Lark.
Small Paul clouded up again. "Best not try and eat my bird, Lark. Best not."
Chett could hear voices drifting through the trees. "Close your bloody mouths, both of you. We're
almost to the Fist."
They emerged near the west face of the hill, and walked around south where the slope was gentler. Near
the edge of the forest a dozen men were taking archery practice. They had carved outlines on the trunks
of trees, and were loosing shafts at them. "Look," said Lark. "A pig with a bow."
Sure enough, the nearest bowman was Ser Piggy himself, the fat boy who had stolen his place with
Maester Aemon. just the sight of Samwell Tarly filled him with anger. Stewarding for Maester Aemon
had been as good a life as he'd ever known. The old blind man was undemanding, and Clydas had taken
care of most of his wants anyway. Chett's duties were easy: cleaning the rookery, a few fires to build, a
few meals to fetch ... and Aemon never once hit him. Thinks he can just walk in and shove me out, on
account of being highborn and knowing how to read. Might be IT ask him to read my knife before I open
his throat with it. "You go on," he told the others, "I want to watch this." The dogs were pulling, anxious
to go with them, to the food they thought would be waiting at the top. Chett kicked the bitch with the toe


of his boot, and that settled them down some.
He watched from the trees as the fat boy wrestled with a longbow as tall as he was, his red moon face
screwed up with concentration. Three arrows stood in the ground before him. Tarly nocked and drew,
held the draw a long moment as he tried to aim, and let fly. The shaft vanished into the greenery. Chett
laughed loudly, a snort of sweet disgust.
"We'll never find that one, and I'll be blamed," announced Edd Tollett, the dour grey-haired squire
everyone called Dolorous Edd. "Nothing ever goes missing that they don't look at me, ever since that
time I lost my
horse. As if that could be helped. He was white and it was snowing, what did they expect?"
"The wind took that one," said Grenn, another friend of Lord Snow's. "Try to hold the bow steady,
Sam."
"It's heavy," the fat boy complained, but he pulled the second arrow all the same. This one went high,
sailing through the branches ten feet above the target.
"I believe you knocked a leaf off that tree," said Dolorous Edd. "Fall is falling fast enough, there's no
need to help it." He sighed. "And we all know what follows fall. Gods, but I am cold. Shoot the last
arrow, Samwell, I believe my tongue is freezing to the roof of my mouth."
Ser Piggy lowered the bow, and Chett thought he was going to start bawling. "It's too hard."
"Notch, draw, and loose," said Grenn. "Go on."
Dutifully, the fat boy plucked his final arrow from the earth, notched it to his longbow, drew, and
released. He did it quickly, without squinting along the shaft painstakingly as he had the first two times.
The arrow struck the charcoal outline low in the chest and hung quivering. "I hit him." Ser Piggy sounded
shocked. "Grenn, did you see? Edd, look, I hit him!"
"Put it between his ribs, Id say," said Grenn.
"Did I kill him?" the fat boy wanted to know.
Tollett shrugged. "Might have punctured a lung, if he had a lung. Most trees don't, as a rule." He took the
bow from Sam's hand. "I've seen worse shots, though. Aye, and made a few."
Ser Piggy was beaming. To look at him you'd think he'd actually done something. But when he saw
Chett and the dogs, his smile curled up and died squeaking.
"You hit a tree," Chett said. "Let's see how you shoot when it's Mance Rayder's lads. They won't stand
there with their arms out and their leaves rustling, oh no. They'll come right at you, screaming in your face,
and I bet you'll piss those breeches. one o' them will plant his axe right between those little pig eyes. The
last thing you'll hear will be the thunk it makes when it bites into your skull."
The fat boy was shaking. Dolorous Edd put a hand on his shoulder. "Brother," he said solemnly, "just
because it happened that way for you doesn't mean Samwell will suffer the same."
"What are you talking about, Tollett?"


"The axe that split your skull. Is it true that half your wits leaked out on the ground and your dogs ate
them?"
The big lout Grenn laughed, and even Samwell Tarly managed a weak little smile. Chett kicked the
nearest dog, yanked on their leashes, and started up the hill. Smile all you want, Ser Piggy. We'll see who
laughs
tonight. He only wished he had time to kill Tollett as well. Gloomy horsefaced fool, that's what he is.
The climb was steep, even on this side of the Fist, which had the gentlest slope. Partway up the dogs
started barking and pulling at him, figuring that they'd get fed soon. He gave them a taste of his boot
instead, and a crack of the whip for the big ugly one that snapped at him. Once they were tied up, he
went to report. "The prints were there like Giant said, but the dogs wouldn't track," he told Mormont in
front of his big black tent. "Down by the river like that, could be old prints."
"A pity." Lord Commander Mormont had a bald head and a great shaggy grey beard, and sounded as
tired as he looked. "We might all have been better for a bit of fresh meat." The raven on his shoulder
bobbed its head and echoed, "Meat. Meat. Meat."
We could cook the bloody dogs, Chett thought, but he kept his mouth shut until the Old Bear sent him
on his way. And that's the last time I'll need to bow my head to that one, he thought to himself with
satisfaction. it seemed to him that it was growing even colder, which he would have swom. wasn't
possible. The dogs huddled together miserably in the hard frozen mud, and Chett was half tempted to
crawl in with them. instead he wrapped a black wool scarf round the lower part of his face, leaving a slit
for his mouth between the winds. It was warmer if he kept moving, he found, so he made a slow circuit
of the perimeter with a wad of sourleaf, sharing a chew or two with the black brothers on guard and
hearing what they had to say. None of the men on the day watch were part of his scheme; even so, he
figured it was good to have some sense of what they were thinking.
Mostly what they were thinking was that it was bloody cold.
The wind was rising as the shadows lengthened. it made a high thin sound as it shivered through the
stones of the ringwall. "I hate that sound," little Giant said. "It sounds like a babe in the brush, wailing
away for milk."
When he finished the circuit and returned to the dogs, he found Lark waiting for him. "The officers are in
the Old Bear's tent again, talking something fierce."
"That's what they do," said Chett. "They're highborn, all but Blane, they get drunk on words instead of
wine."
Lark sidled closer. "Cheese-for-wits keeps going on about the bird," he warned, glancing about to make
certain no one was close. "Now he's asking if we cached any seed for the damn thing."
"It's a raven," said Chett. "It eats corpses."
Lark grinned. "His, might be?"
Or yours. It seemed to Chett that they needed the big man more than they needed Lark. "Stop fretting
about Small Paul. You do your part, he'll do his."


Twilight was creeping through the woods by the time he rid himself of the Sisterman and sat down to
edge his sword. It was bloody hard work with his gloves on, but he wasn't about to take them off. Cold
as it was, any fool that touched steel with a bare hand was going to lose a patch of skin.
The dogs whimpered when the sun went down. He gave them water and curses. "Half a night more, and
you can find your own feast." By then he could smell supper.
Dywen was holding forth at the cookfire as Chett got his heel of hardbread and a bowl of bean and
bacon soup from Hake the cook. "The wood's too silent," the old forester was saying. "No frogs near
that river, no owls in the dark. I never heard no deader wood than this."
"Them teeth of yours sound pretty dead," said Hake.
Dywen clacked his wooden teeth. "No wolves neither. There was, before, but no more. Where'd they
go, you figure?"
"Someplace warm," said Chett.
of the dozen odd brothers who sat by the fire, four were his. He gave each one a hard squinty look as he
ate, to see if any showed signs of breaking. Dirk seemed calm enough, sitting silent and sharpening his
blade, the way he did every night. And Sweet Donnel Hill was all easy japes. He had white teeth and fat
red lips and yellow locks that he wore in an artful tumble about his shoulders, and he claimed to be the
bastard of some Lannister. Maybe he was at that. Chett had no use for pretty boys, nor for bastards
neither, but Sweet Donnel seemed like to hold his own.
He was less certain about the forester the brothers called Sawwood, more for his snoring than for
anything to do with trees. just now he looked so restless he might never snore again. And Maslyn was
worse. Chett could see sweat trickling down his face, despite the frigid wind. The beads of moisture
sparkled in the firelight, like so many little wet jewels. Maslyn wasn't eating neither, only staring at his
soup as if the smell of it was about to make him sick. I'll need to watch that one, Chett thought.
"Assemble!" The shout came suddenly, from a dozen throats, and quickly spread to every part of the
hilltop camp. "Men of the Night's Watch! Assemble at the central fire!"
Frowning, Chett finished his soup and followed the rest.
The Old Bear stood before the fire with Smallwood, Locke, Wythers, and Blane ranged behind him in a
row. Mormont wore a cloak of thick black fur, and his raven perched upon his shoulder, preening its
black feathers. This can't be good. Chett squeezed between Brown Bemarr and some Shadow Tower
men. When everyone was gathered, save for the watchers in the woods and the guards on the ringwall,
Mormont cleared
his throat and spat. The spittle was frozen before it hit the ground. "Brothers," he said, "men of the
Night's Watch."
"Men!" his raven screamed. "Men! Men!"
"The wildlings are on the march, following the course of the Milkwater down out of the mountains.
Thoren believes their van will be upon us ten days hence. Their most seasoned raiders will be with Harma
Dogshead in that van. The rest will likely form a rearguard, or ride in close company with Mance Rayder


himself. Elsewhere their fighters will be spread thin along the line of march. They have oxen, mules,
horses ... but few enough. Most will be afoot, and ill-armed and untrained. Such weapons as they carry
are more like to be stone and bone than steel. They are burdened with women, children, herds of sheep
and goats, and all their worldly goods besides. In short, though they are numerous, they are vulnerable ...
and they do not know that we are here. Or so we must pray."
They know, thought Chett. You bloody old pus bag, they know, certain as sunrise. Qhorin Halfhand
hasn't come back, has he? Nor Jarman Buckwell. lf any of them got caught, you know damned well the
wildlings will have wrung a song or two out of them by now
Smallwood stepped forward. "Mance Rayder means to break the Wall and bring red war to the Seven
Kingdoms. Well, that's a game two can play. On the morrow we'll bring the war to him."
"We ride at dawn with all our strength," the Old Bear said as a murmur went through the assembly. "We
will ride north, and loop around to the west. Harma's van will be well past the Fist by the time we turn.
The foothills of the Frostfangs are full of narrow winding valleys made for ambush. Their line of march will
stretch for many miles. We shall fall on them in several places at once, and make them swear we were
three thousand, not three hundred."
"We'll hit hard and be away before their horsemen can form up to face us," Thoren Smallwood said. "If
they pursue, we'll lead them a merry chase, then wheel and hit again farther down the column. We'll burn
their wagons, scatter their herds, and slay as many as we can. Mance Rayder himself, if we find him. If
they break and return to their hovels, we've won. If not, we'll harry them all the way to the Wall, and see
to it that they leave a trail of corpses to mark their progress."
"There are thousands," someone called from behind Chett.
"We'll die." That was Maslyn's voice, green with fear.
"Die," screamed Mormont's raven, flapping its black wings. "Die, die, die. "
"Many of us," the Old Bear said. "Mayhaps even all of us. But as another Lord Commander said a
thousand years ago, that is why they dress us in black. Remember your words, brothers. For we are the
swords in the darkness, the watchers on the walls. . ."
"The fire that bums against the cold." Ser Mallador Locke drew his longsword.
"The light that brings the dawn," others answered, and more swords were pulled from scabbards.
Then all of them were drawing, and it was near three hundred upraised swords and as many voices
crying, "The horn that wakes the sleepers! The shield that guards the realms of men!" Chett had no
choice but to join his voice to the others. The air was misty with their breath, and firelight glinted off the
steel. He was pleased to see Lark and Softfoot and Sweet Donnel Hill joining in, as if they were as big
fools as the rest. That was good. No sense to draw attention, when their hour was so close.
When the shouting died away, once more he heard the sound of the wind picking at the ringwall. The
flames swirled and shivered, as if they too were cold, and in the sudden quiet the Old Bear's raven
cawed loudly and once again said, "Die."
Clever bird, thought Chett as the officers dismissed them, warning everyone to get a good meal and a
long rest tonight. Chett crawled under his furs near the dogs, his head full of things that could go wrong.


What if that bloody oath gave one of his a change of heart? Or Small Paul forgot and tried to kill
Mormont during the second watch in place of the third? Or Maslyn lost his courage, or someone turned
informer, or ...
He found himself listening to the night. The wind did sound like a wailing child, and from time to time he
could hear men's voices, a horse's whinny, a log spitting in the fire. But nothing else. So quiet.
He could see Bessa's face floating before him. It wasn't the knife I wanted to put in you, he wanted to
tell her. I picked you flowers, wild roses and tansy and goldencups, it took me all morning. His heart was
thumping like a drum, so loud he feared it might wake the camp. Ice caked his beard all around his
mouth. Where did that come from, with Bessa? Whenever he'd thought of her before, it had only been to
remember the way she'd looked, dying. What was wrong with him? He could hardly breathe. Had he
gone to sleep? He got to his knees, and something wet and cold touched his nose. Chett looked up.
Snow was falling.
He could feel tears freezing to his cheeks. It isn't fair, he wanted to scream. Snow would ruin everything
he'd worked for, all his careful plans. It was a heavy fall, thick white flakes coming down all about him.
How would they find their food caches in the snow, or the game trail they meant to follow east? They
won't need Dywen nor Bannen to hunt us down neither, not if we're tracking through fresh snow And
snow hid the shape of the ground, especially by night. A horse could stumble over a root, break a leg on
a stone. We're done, he realized. Done before we began. We're lost. There'd be no lord's life for the
leechman's son, no
keep to call his own, no wives nor crowns. Only a wildling's sword in his belly, and then an unmarked
grave. The snow's taken it all from me ... the bloody snow...
Snow had ruined him once before. Snow and his pet pig.
Chett got to his feet. His legs were stiff, and the falling snowflakes turned the distant torches to vague
orange glows. He felt as though he were being attacked by a cloud of pale cold bugs. They settled on his
shoulders, on his head, they flew at his nose and his eyes. Cursing, he brushed them off. Samwell Tarly,
he remembered. I can still deal with Ser Piggy. He wrapped his scarf around his face, pulled up his hood,
and went striding through the camp to where the coward slept.
The snow was falling so heavily that he got lost among the tents, but finally he spotted the snug little
windbreak the fat boy had made for himself between a rock and the raven cages. Tarly was buried
beneath a mound of black wool blankets and shaggy furs. The snow was drifting in to cover him. He
looked like some kind of soft round mountain. Steel whispered on leather faint as hope as Chett eased
his dagger from its sheath. One of the ravens quorked. "Snow," another muttered, peering through the
bars with black eyes. The first added a "Snow" of its own. He edged past them, placing each foot
carefully. He would clap his left hand down over the fat boy's mouth to muffle his cries, and then ...
Uuuuuuuhoooooooooo.
He stopped midstep, swallowing his curse as the sound of the horn shuddered through the camp, faint
and far, yet unmistakable. Not now Gods be damned, not NOW! The Old Bear had hidden far-eyes in a
ring of trees around the Fist, to give warning of any approach. Jarman Buckwell's back from the Giant's
Stair, Chett figured, or Qhorin Halfhand from the Skirling Pass. A single blast of the horn meant brothers
returning. If it was the Halfhand, Jon Snow might be with him, alive.


Sam Tarly sat up puffy-eyed and stared at the snow in confusion. The ravens were cawing noisily, and
Chett could hear his dogs baying. Half the bloody camp's awake. His gloved fingers clenched around the
dagger's hilt as he waited for the sound to die away. But no sooner had it gone than it came again, louder
and longer.
Uuuuuuuuuuuuhooooooooooooooo.
"Gods," he heard Sam Tarly whimper. The fat boy lurched to his knees, his feet tangled in his cloak and
blankets. He kicked them away and reached for a chain-mail hauberk he'd hung on the rock nearby. As
he slipped the huge tent of a garment down over his head and wriggled into it, he spied Chett standing
there. "Was it two?" he asked. "I dreamed I heard two blasts. . . "
"No dream," said Chett. "Two blasts to call the Watch to arms. Two blasts for foes approaching.
There's an axe out there with Piggy writ on
it, fat boy. Two blasts means wildlings. " The fear on that big moon face made him want to laugh.
"Bugger them all to seven hells. Bloody Harma. Bloody Mance Rayder. Bloody Smallwood, he said they
wouldn't be on us for another - "
Uuuuuuuuuuuuuuuhooooooooooooooooooooooooo.
The sound went on and on and on, until it seemed it would never die. The ravens were flapping and
screaming, flying about their cages and banging off the bars, and all about the camp the brothers of the
Night's Watch were rising, donning their armor, buckling on swordbelts, reaching for battleaxes and
bows. Samwell Tarly stood shaking, his face the same color as the snow that swirled down all around
them. "Three," he squeaked to Chett, "that was three, I heard three. They never blow three. Not for
hundreds and thousands of years. Three means -"
" - Others." Chett made a sound that was half a laugh and half a sob, and suddenly his smallclothes were
wet, and he could feel the piss running down his leg, see steam rising off the front of his breeches.
Chapter 1
Jaime
An east wind blew through his tangled hair, as soft and fragrant as
Cersei's fingers. He could hear birds singing, and feel the river moving beneath the boat as the sweep of
the oars sent them toward the pale pink dawn. After so long in darkness, the world was so sweet that
Jaime Lannister felt dizzy. I am alive, and drunk on sunlight. A laugh burst from his lips, sudden as a quail
flushed from cover.
"Quiet," the wench grumbled, scowling. Scowls suited her broad homely face better than a smile. Not
that Jaime had ever seen her smiling. He amused himself by picturing her in one of Cersei's silken gowns
in place of her studded leather jerkin. As well dress a cow in silk as this one.
But the cow could row. Beneath her roughspun brown breeches were calves like cords of wood, and


the long muscles of her arms stretched and tightened with each stroke of the oars. Even after rowing half
the night, she showed no signs of tiring, which was more than could be said for his cousin Ser Cleos,
laboring on the other oar. A big strong peasant wench to look at her, yet she speaks like one highborn
and wears longsword and dagger. Ah, but can she use them? Jaime meant to find out, as soon as he rid
himself of these fetters.
He wore iron manacles on his wrists and a matching pair about his ankles, joined by a length of heavy
chain no more than a foot long. "You'd think my word as a Lannister was not good enough," he'd japed
as they bound him. He'd been very drunk by then, thanks to Catelyn Stark. Of their escape from
Riverrun, he recalled only bits and pieces. There had been some trouble with the gaoler, but the big
wench had overcome him.
After that they had climbed an endless stair, around and around. His legs were weak as grass, and he'd
stumbled twice or thrice, until the wench lent him an arm to lean on. At some point he was bundled into a
traveler's cloak and shoved into the bottom of a skiff. He remembered listening to Lady Catelyn
command someone to raise the portcullis on the Water Gate. She was sending Ser Cleos Frey back to
King's Landing with new terms for the queen, she'd declared in a tone that brooked no argument.
He must have drifted off then. The wine had made him sleepy, and it felt good to stretch, a luxury his
chains had not permitted him in the cell. Jaime had long ago learned to snatch sleep in the saddle during a
march. This was no harder. Tyrion is going to laugh himself sick when he hears how I slept through my
own escape. He was awake now, though, and the fetters were irksome. "My lady," he called out, "if
you'll strike off these chains, I'll spell you at those oars."
She scowled again, her face all horse teeth and glowering suspicion. "You'll wear your chains,
Kingslayer."
"You figure to row all the way to King's Landing, wench?"
"You will call me Brienne. Not wench."
"My name is Ser Jaime. Not Kingslayer."
"Do you deny that you slew a king?"
"No. Do you deny your sex? If so, unlace those breeches and show me." He gave her an innocent smile.
"I'd ask you to open your bodice, but from the look of you that wouldn't prove much."
Ser Cleos fretted. "Cousin, remember your courtesies."
The Lannister blood runs thin in this one. Cleos was his Aunt Genna's son by that dullard Emmon Frey,
who had lived in terror of Lord Tywin Lannister since the day he wed his sister. When Lord Walder Frey
had brought the Twins into the war on the side of Riverrun, Ser Emmon had chosen his wife's allegiance
over his father's. Casterly Rock got the worst of that bargain, Jaime reflected. Ser Cleos looked like a
weasel, fought like a goose, and had the courage of an especially brave ewe. Lady Stark had promised
him release if he delivered her message to Tyrion, and Ser Cleos had solemnly vowed to do so.
They'd all done a deal of vowing back in that cell, Jaime most of all. That was Lady Catelyn's price for
loosing him. She had laid the point of the big wench's sword against his heart and said, "Swear that you
will never again take up arms against Stark nor Tully. Swear that you will compel your brother to honor
his pledge to return my daughters safe and unharmed. Swear on your honor as a knight, on your honor as


a Lannister, on your honor as a Sworn Brother of the Kingsguard. Swear it by your sister's life, and your
father's, and your son's, by the old gods and the new, and I'll send you back to your sister. Refuse, and I
will have your
blood." He remembered the prick of the steel through his rags as she twisted the point of the sword.
I wonder what the High Septon would have to say about the sanctity of oaths sworn while dead drunk,
chained to a wall, with a sword pressed to your chest? Not that Jaime was truly concerned about that fat
fraud, or the gods he claimed to serve. He remembered the pail Lady Catelyn had kicked over in his cell.
A strange woman, to trust her girls to a man with shit for honor. Though she was trusting him as little as
she dared. She is putting her hope in Tyrion, not in me. "Perhaps she is not so stupid after all," he said
aloud.
His captor took it wrong. "I am not stupid. Nor deaf."
He was gentle with her; mocking this one would be so easy there would be no sport to it. "I was
speaking to myself, and not of you. It's an easy habit to slip into in a cell."
She frowned at him, pushing the oars forward, pulling them back, pushing them forward, saying nothing.
As glib of tongue as she is fair of face. "By your speech, I'd judge you nobly born."
"My father is Selwyn of Tarth, by the grace of the gods Lord of Evenfall." Even that was given
grudgingly.
"Tarth," Jaime said. "A ghastly large rock in the narrow sea, as I recall. And Evenfall is sworn to Storm's
End. How is it that you serve Robb of Winterfell? "
"It is Lady Catelyn I serve. And she commanded me to deliver you safe to your brother Tyrion at King's
Landing, not to bandy words with you. Be silent."
"I've had a bellyful. of silence, woman."
"Talk with Ser Cleos then. I have no words for monsters."
Jaime hooted. "Are there monsters hereabouts? Hiding beneath the water, perhaps? In that thick of
willows? And me without my sword!"
"A man who would violate his own sister, murder his king, and fling an innocent child to his death
deserves no other name."
Innocent? The wretched boy was spying on us. All Jaime had wanted was an hour alone with Cersei.
Their journey north had been one long torment; seeing her every day, unable to touch her, knowing that
Robert stumbled drunkenly into her bed every night in that great creaking wheelhouse. Tyrion had done
his best to keep him in a good humor, but it had not been enough. "You will be courteous as concerns
Cersei, wench," he warned her.
"My name is Brienne, not wench."
"What do you care what a monster calls you?"


"My name is Brienne," she repeated, dogged as a hound.
"Lady Brienne?" She looked so uncomfortable that Jaime sensed a
weakness. "Or would Ser Brienne be more to your taste?" He laughed. "No, I fear not. You can trick
out a milk cow in crupper, crinet, and charnfron, and bard her all in silk, but that doesn't mean you can
ride her into battle."
"Cousin Jaime, please, you ought not speak so roughly." Under his cloak, Ser Cleos wore a surcoat
quartered with the twin towers of House Frey and the golden lion of Lannister. "We have far to go, we
should not quarrel amongst ourselves."
"When I quarrel I do it with a sword, coz. I was speaking to the lady. Tell me, wench, are all the women
on Tarth as homely as you? I pity the men, if so. Perhaps they do not know what real women look like,
living on a dreary mountain in the sea."
"Tarth is beautiful, " the wench grunted between strokes. "The Sapphire Isle, it's called. Be quiet,
monster, unless you mean to make me gag you."
"She's rude as well, isn't she, coz?" Jaime asked Ser Cleos. "Though she has steel in her spine, I'll grant
you. Not many men dare name me monster to my face." Though behind my back they speak freely
enough, I have no doubt.
Ser Cleos coughed nervously. "Lady Brienne had those lies from Catelyn Stark, no doubt. The Starks
cannot hope to defeat you with swords, ser, so now they make war with poisoned words."
They did defeat me with swords, you chinless cretin. Jaime smiled knowingly. Men will read all sorts of
things into a knowing smile, if you let them. Has cousin Cleos truly swallowed this kettle of dung, or is he
striving to ingratiate himself? What do we have here, an honest muttonhead or a lickspittle?
Ser Cleos prattled blithely on. "Any man who'd believe that a Sworn Brother of the Kingsguard would
harm a child does not know the meaning of honor."
Lickspittle. If truth be told, Jaime had come to rue heaving Brandon Stark out that window. Cersei had
given him no end of grief afterward, when the boy refused to die. "He was seven, Jaime," she'd berated
him. "Even if he understood what he saw, we should have been able to frighten him into silence."
"I didn't think you'd want -
"You never think. If the boy should wake and tell his father what he saw - "
"If if if." He had pulled her into his lap. "if he wakes we'll say he was dreaming, we'll call him a liar, and
should worse come to worst I'll kill Ned Stark."
"And then what do you imagine Robert will do?"
"Let Robert do as he pleases. I'll go to war with him if I must. The War for Cersei's Cunt, the singers will
call it."
"Jaime, let go of me!" she raged, struggling to rise.


Instead he had kissed her. For a moment she resisted, but then her mouth opened under his. He
remembered the taste of wine and cloves on her tongue. She gave a shudder. His hand went to her
bodice and yanked, tearing the silk so her breasts spilled free, and for a time the Stark boy had been
forgotten.
Had Cersei remembered him afterward and hired this man Lady Catelyn spoke of, to make sure the boy
never woke? If she wanted him dead she would have sent me. And it is not like her to chose a catspaw
who would make such a royal botch of the killing.
Downriver, the rising sun shimmered against the wind-whipped surface of the river. The south shore was
red clay, smooth as any road. Smaller streams fed into the greater, and the rotting trunks of drowned
trees clung to the banks. The north shore was wilder. High rocky bluffs rose twenty feet above them,
crowned by stands of beech, oak, and chestnut. Jaime spied a watchtower on the heights ahead, growing
taller with every stroke of the oars. Long before they were upon it, he knew that it stood abandoned, its
weathered stones overgrown with climbing roses.
When the wind shifted, Ser Cleos helped the big wench run up the sail, a stiff triangle of striped
red-and-blue canvas. Tully colors, sure to cause them grief if they encountered any Lannister forces on
the river, but it was the only sail they had. Brienne took the rudder. Jaime threw out the leeboard, his
chains rattling as he moved. After that, they made better speed, with wind and current both favoring their
flight. "We could save a deal of traveling if you delivered me to my father instead of my brother," he
pointed out.
"Lady Catelyn's daughters are in King's Landing. I will return with the girls or not at all."
Jaime turned to Ser Cleos. "Cousin, lend me your knife."
"No." The woman tensed. "I will not have you armed." Her voice was as unyielding as stone.
She fears me, even in irons. "Cleos, it seems I must ask you to shave me. Leave the beard, but take the
hair off my head."
"You'd be shaved bald?" asked Cleos Frey.
"The realm knows Jaime Larmister as a beardless knight with long golden hair. A bald man with a filthy
yellow beard may pass unnoticed. I'd sooner not be recognized while I'm in irons."
The dagger was not as sharp as it might have been. Cleos hacked away manfully, sawing and ripping his
way through the mats and tossing the hair over the side. The golden curls floated on the surface of the
water, gradually falling astern. As the tangles vanished, a louse went crawling down his neck. Jaime
caught it and crushed it against his thumbnail. Ser Cleos picked others from his scalp and flicked them
into the water. Jaime
doused his head and made Ser Cleos whet the blade before he let him scrape away the last inch of
yellow stubble. When that was done, they trimmed back his beard as well.
The reflection in the water was a man he did not know. Not only was he bald, but he looked as though
he had aged five years in that dungeon; his face was thinner, with hollows under his eyes and lines he did
not remember. I don't look as much like Cersei this way. She'll hate that.
By midday, Ser Cleos had fallen asleep. His snores sounded like ducks mating. Jaime stretched out to


watch the world flow past; after the dark cell, every rock and tree was a wonder.
A few one-room shacks came and went, perched on tall poles that made them look like cranes. Of the
folk who lived there they saw no sign. Birds flew overhead, or cried out from the trees along the shore,
and Jaime glimpsed silvery fish knifing through the water. Tully trout, there's a bad omen, he thought, until
he saw a worse - one of the floating logs they passed turned out to be a dead man, bloodless and
swollen. His cloak was tangled in the roots of a fallen tree, its color unmistakably Lannister crimson. He
wondered if the corpse had been someone he knew.
The forks of the Trident were the easiest way to move goods or men across the riverlands. In times of
peace, they would have encountered fisherfolk in their skiffs, grain barges being poled downstream,
merchants selling needles and bolts of cloth from floating shops, perhaps even a gaily painted mummer's
boat with quilted sails of half a hundred colors, making its way upriver from village to village and castle to
castle.
But the war had taken its toll. They sailed past villages, but saw no villagers. An empty net, slashed and
torn and hanging from some trees, was the only sign of fisherfolk. A young girl watering her horse rode
off as soon as she glimpsed their sail. Later they passed a dozen peasants digging in a field beneath the
shell of a burnt towerhouse. The men gazed at them with dull eyes, and went back to their labors once
they decided the skiff was no threat.
The Red Fork was wide and slow, a meandering river of loops and bends dotted with tiny wooded islets
and frequently choked by sandbars and snags that lurked just below the water's surface. Brienne seemed
to have a keen eye for the dangers, though, and always seemed to find the channel. When Jaime
complimented her on her knowledge of the river, she looked at him suspiciously and said, "I do not know
the river. Tarth is an island. I learned to manage oars and sail before I ever sat a horse."
Ser Cleos sat up and rubbed at his eyes. "Gods, my arms are sore. I hope the wind lasts." He sniffed at
it. "I smell rain."
Jaime would welcome a good rain. The dungeons of Riverrun were not the cleanest place in the Seven
Kingdoms. By now he must smell like an overripe cheese.
Cleos squinted downriver. "Smoke."
A thin grey finger crooked them on. It was rising from the south bank several miles on, twisting and
curling. Below, Jaime made out the smouldering remains of a large building, and a live oak full of dead
women.
The crows had scarcely started on their corpses. The thin ropes cut deeply into the soft flesh of their
throats, and when the wind blew they twisted and swayed. "This was not chivalrously done," said Brienne
when they were close enough to see it clearly. "No true knight would condone such wanton butchery."
"True knights see worse every time they ride to war, wench," said Jaime. "And do worse, yes."
Brienne turned the rudder toward the shore. "I'll leave no innocents to be food for crows."
"A heartless wench. Crows need to eat as well. Stay to the river and leave the dead alone, woman."
They landed upstream of where the great oak leaned out over the water. As Brienne lowered the sail,
Jaime climbed out, clumsy in his chains. The Red Fork filled his boots and soaked through the ragged


breeches. Laughing, he dropped to his knees, plunged his head under the water, and came up drenched
and dripping. His hands were caked with dirt, and when he rubbed them clean in the current they seemed
thinner and paler than he remembered. His legs were stiff as well, and unsteady when he put his weight
upon them. I was too bloody long in Hoster Tully's dungeon.
Brienne and Cleos dragged the skiff onto the bank. The corpses hung above their heads, ripening in
death like foul fruit. "One of us will need to cut them down," the wench said.
"I'll climb." Jaime waded ashore, clanking. "Just get these chains off."
The wench was staring up at one of the dead women. Jaime shuffled closer with small stutter steps, the
only kind the foot-long chain permitted. When he saw the crude sign hung about the neck of the highest
corpse, he smiled. "They Lay With Lions," he read. "Oh, yes, woman, this was most unchivalrously done
... but by your side, not mine. I wonder who they were, these women?"
"Tavern wenches," said Ser Cleos Frey. "This was an inn, I remember it now. Some men of my escort
spent the night here when we last returned to Riverrun." Nothing remained of the building but the stone
foundation and a tangle of collapsed beams, charred black. Smoke still rose from the ashes.
Jaime left brothels and whores to his brother Tyrion; Cersei was the only woman he had ever wanted.
"The girls pleasured some of my lord father's soldiers, it would seem. Perhaps served them food and
drink.
That's how they earned their traitors' collars, with a kiss and a cup of ale." He glanced up and down the
river, to make certain they were quite alone. "This is Bracken land. Lord Jonos might have ordered them
killed. My father burned his castle, I fear he loves us not."
"It might be Marq Piper's work," said Ser Cleos. "Or that wisp o' the wood Beric Dondarrion, though
I'd heard he kills only soldiers. Perhaps a band of Roose Bolton's northmen?"
"Bolton was defeated by my father on the Green Fork."
"But not broken," said Ser Cleos. "He came south again when Lord Tywin marched against the fords.
The word at Riverrun was that he'd taken Harrenhal from Ser Amory Lorch."
Jaime liked the sound of that not at all. "Brienne," he said, granting her the courtesy of the name in the
hopes that she might listen, "if Lord Bolton holds Harrenhal, both the Trident and the kingsroad are likely
watched."
He thought he saw a touch of uncertainty in her big blue eyes. "You are under my protection. They'd
need to kill me."
"I shouldn't think that would trouble them."
"I am as good a fighter as you," she said defensively. "I was one of King Renly's chosen seven. With his
own hands, he cloaked me with the striped silk of the Rainbow Guard."
"The Rainbow Guard? You and six other girls, was it? A singer once said that all maids are fair in silk ...
but he never met you, did he?"
The woman turned red. "We have graves to dig." She went to climb the tree.


The lower limbs of the oak were big enough for her to stand upon once she'd gotten up the trunk. She
walked amongst the leaves, dagger in hand, cutting down the corpses. Flies swarmed around the bodies
as they fell, and the stench grew worse with each one she dropped. "This is a deal of trouble to take for
whores," Ser Cleos complained. "What are we supposed to dig with? We have no spades, and I will not
use my sword, I - "
Brienne gave a shout. She jumped down rather than climbing. "To the boat. Be quick. There's a sail."
They made what haste they could, though Jaime could hardly run, and had to be pulled back up into the
skiff by his cousin. Brienne shoved off with an oar and raised sail hurriedly. "Ser Cleos, I'll need you to
row as well."
He did as she bid. The skiff began to cut the water a bit faster; current, wind, and oars all worked for
them. Jaime sat chained, peering upriver. Only the top of the other sail was visible. With the way the Red
Fork looped, it looked to be across the fields, moving north behind a screen of trees while they moved
south, but he knew that was deceptive. He
lifted both hands to shade his eyes. "Mud red and watery blue," he announced.
Brienne's big mouth worked soundlessly, giving her the look of a cow chewing its cud. "Faster, ser."
The inn soon vanished behind them, and they lost sight of the top of the sail as well, but that meant
nothing. Once the pursuers swung around the loop they would become visible again. "We can hope the
noble Tullys will stop to bury the dead whores, I suppose." The prospect of returning to his cell did not
appeal to Jaime. Tyrion could think of something clever now, but all that occurs to me is to go at them
with a sword.
For the good part of an hour they played peek-and-seek with the pursuers, sweeping around bends and
between small wooded isles. just when they were starting to hope that somehow they might have left
behind the pursuit, the distant sail became visible again. Ser Cleos paused in his stroke. "The Others take
them." He wiped sweat from his brow.
"Row!" Brienne said.
"That is a river galley coming after us," Jaime announced after he'd watched for a while. With every
stroke, it seemed to grow a little larger. "Nine oars on each side ' which means eighteen men. More, if
they crowded on fighters as well as rowers. And larger sails than ours. We cannot outrun her."
Ser Cleos froze at his oars. "Eighteen, you said?"
"Six for each of us. I'd want eight, but these bracelets hinder me somewhat." Jaime held up his wrists.
"Unless the Lady Brienne would be so kind as to unshackle me?"
She ignored him, putting all her effort into her stroke.
"We had half a night's start on them," Jaime said. "They've been rowing since dawn, resting two oars at a
time. They'll be exhausted. just now the sight of our sail has given them a burst of strength, but that will
not last. We ought to be able to kill a good many of them."
Ser Cleos gaped. "But ... there are eighteen."


"At the least. More likely twenty or twenty-five."
His cousin groaned. "We can't hope to defeat eighteen."
"Did I say we could? The best we can hope for is to die with swords in our hands." He was perfectly
sincere. Jaime Lannister had never been afraid of death.
Brienne broke off rowing. Sweat had stuck strands of her flax-colored hair to her forehead, and her
grimace made her look homelier than ever. "You are under my protection," she said, her voice so thick
with anger that it was almost a growl.
He had to laugh at such fierceness. She's the Hound with teats, he thought. Or would be, if she had any
teats to speak of. "Then protect me, wench. Or free me to protect myself."
The galley was skimming downriver, a great wooden dragonfly. The water around her was churned
white by the furious action of her oars. She was gaining visibly, the men on her deck crowding forward as
she came on. Metal glinted in their hands, and Jaime could see bows as well. Archers. He hated archers.
At the prow of the onrushing galley stood a stocky man with a bald head, bushy grey eyebrows, and
brawny arms. Over his mail he wore a soiled white surcoat with a weeping willow embroidered in pale
green, but his cloak was fastened with a silver trout. Riverrun's captain of guards. In his day Ser Robin
Ryger had been a notably tenacious fighter, but his day was done; he was of an age with Hoster Tully,
and had grown old with his lord.
When the boats were fifty yards apart, Jaime cupped his hands around his mouth and shouted back over
the water. "Come to wish me godspeed, Ser Robin?"
"Come to take you back, Kingslayer," Ser Robin Ryger bellowed. "How is it that you've lost your
golden hair?"
"I hope to blind my enemies with the sheen off my head. It's worked well enough for you."
Ser Robin was unamused. The distance between skiff and galley had shrunk to forty yards. "Throw your
oars and your weapons into the river, and no one need be harmed."
Ser Cleos twisted around. "Jaime, tell him we were freed by Lady Catelyn ... an exchange of captives,
lawful. . . "
Jaime told him, for all the good it did. "Catelyn Stark does not rule in Riverrun," Ser Robin shouted
back. Four archers crowded into position on either side of him, two standing and two kneeling. "Cast
your swords into the water."
"I have no sword," he returned, "but if I did, I'd stick it through your belly and hack the balls off those
four cravens."
A flight of arrows answered him. One thudded into the mast, two pierced the sail, and the fourth missed
Jaime by a foot.
Another of the Red Fork's broad loops loomed before them. Brienne angled the skiff across the bend.
The yard swung as they turned, their sail cracking as it filled with wind. Ahead a large island sat in


midstream. The main channel flowed right. To the left a cutoff ran between the island and the high bluffs
of the north shore. Brienne moved the tiller and the skiff sheared left, sail rippling. Jaime watched her
eyes. Pretty eyes, he thought, and calm. He knew how to read a man's eyes. He knew what fear looked
like. She is determined, not desperate.
Thirty yards behind, the galley was entering the bend. "Ser Cleos, take the tiller," the wench
commanded. "Kingslayer, take an oar and keep us off the rocks."
"As my lady commands." An oar was not a sword, but the blade could break a man's face if well swung,
and the shaft could be used to parry.
Ser Cleos shoved the oar into Jaime's hand and scrambled aft. They crossed the head of the island and
turned sharply down the cutoff, sending a wash of water against the face of the bluff as the boat tilted.
The island was densely wooded, a tangle of willows, oaks, and tall pines that cast deep shadows across
the rushing water, hiding snags and the rotted trunks of drowned trees. To their left the bluff rose sheer
and rocky, and at its foot the river foamed whitely around broken boulders and tumbles of rock fallen
from the cliff face.
They passed from sunlight into shadow, hidden from the galley's view between the green wall of the trees
and the stony grey-brown bluff. A few moments'respite from the arrows, Jaime thought, pushing them off
a half-submerged boulder.
The skiff rocked. He heard a soft splash, and when he glanced around, Brienne was gone. A moment
later he spied her again, pulling herself from the water at the base of the bluff. She waded through a
shallow pool, scrambled over some rocks, and began to climb. Ser Cleos goggled, mouth open. Fool,
thought Jaime. "Ignore the wench," he snapped at his cousin. "Steer."
They could see the sail moving behind the trees. The river galley came into full view at the top of the
cutoff, twenty-five yards behind. Her bow swung hard as she came around, and a half-dozen arrows
took flight, but all went well wide. The motion of the two boats was giving the archers difficulty, but Jaime
knew they'd soon enough learn to compensate. Brienne was halfway up the cliff face, pulling herself from
handhold to handhold. Ryger's sure to see her, and once he does he'll have those bowmen bring her
down. Jaime decided to see if the old man's pride would make him stupid. "Ser Robin," he shouted, "hear
me for a moment."
Ser Robin raised a hand, and his archers lowered their bows. "Say what you will, Kingslayer, but say it
quickly."
The skiff swung through a litter of broken stones as Jaime called out, "I know a better way to settle this -
single combat. You and I"
"I was not born this morning, Lannister."
"No, but you're like to die this afternoon." Jaime raised his hands so the other could see the manacles.
"I'll fight you in chains. What could you fear?"
"Not you, ser. If the choice were mine, I'd like nothing better, but I am commanded to bring you back
alive if possible. Bowmen." He signaled them on. "Notch. Draw Loo -"
The range was less than twenty yards. The archers could scarcely have missed, but as they pulled on
their longbows a rain of pebbles cascaded


down around them. Small stones rattled on their deck, bounced off their helms, and made splashes on
both sides of the bow. Those who had wits enough to understand raised their eyes just as a boulder the
size of a cow detached itself from the top of the bluff. Ser Robin shouted in dismay. The stone tumbled
through the air, struck the face of the cliff, cracked in two, and smashed down on them. The larger piece
snapped the mast, tore through the sail, sent two of the archers flying into the river, and crushed the leg of
a rower as he bent over his oar. The rapidity with which the galley began to fill with water suggested that
the smaller fragment had punched right through her hull. The oarsman's screams echoed off the bluff while
the archers flailed wildly in the current. From the way they were splashing, neither man could swim. Jaime
laughed.
By the time they emerged from the cutoff, the galley was foundering amongst pools, eddies, and snags,
and Jaime Lannister had decided that the gods were good. Ser Robin and his thrice-damned archers
would have a long wet walk back to Riverrun, and he was rid of the big homely wench as well. I could
not have planned it better myself. Once I'm free of these irons. . .
Ser Cleos raised a shout. When Jaime looked up, Brienne was lumbering along the clifftop, well ahead
of them, having cut across a finger of land while they were following the bend in the river. She threw
herself off the rock, and looked almost graceful as she folded into a dive. It would have been ungracious
to hope that she would smash her head on a stone. Ser Cleos turned the skiff toward her. Thankfully,
Jaime still had his oar. One good swing when she comes paddling up and I'll be free of her.
instead he found himself stretching the oar out over the water. Brienne grabbed hold, and Jaime pulled
her in. As he helped her into the skiff, water ran from her hair and dripped from her sodden clothing to
pool on the deck. She's even uglier wet. Who would have thought it possible? "You're a bloody stupid
wench," he told her. "We could have sailed on without you. I suppose you expect me to thank you?"
"I want none of your thanks, Kingslayer. I swore an oath to bring you safe to King's Landing."
"And you actually mean to keep it?" Jaime gave her his brightest smile. "Now there's a wonder."
Chapter 2
Catelyn
Ser Desmond Grell had served House Tully all his life. He had been a squire when Catelyn was born, a
knight when she learned to walk and ride and swim, master-at-arms by the day that she was wed. He
had seen Lord Hoster's little Cat become a young woman, a great lord's lady, mother to a king. And now
he has seen me become a traitor as well.
Her brother Edmure had named Ser Desmond castellan of Riverrun when he rode off to battle, so it fell
to him to deal with her crime. To ease his discomfort he brought her father's steward with him, dour
Utherydes Wayn. The two men stood and looked at her; Ser Desmond stout, red-faced, embarrassed,
Utherydes grave, gaunt, melancholy. Each waited for the other to speak. They have given their lives to
my father's service, and I have repaid them with disgrace, Catelyn thought wearily.


"Your sons," Ser Desmond said at last. "Maester Vyman told us. The poor lads. Terrible. Terrible.
But..."
"We share your grief, my lady," said Utherydes Wayn. "All Riverrun mourns with you, but . . . "
"The news must have driven you mad," Ser Desmond broke in, "a madness of grief, a mother's madness,
men will understand. You did not know..."
"I did," Catelyn said firmly. "I understood what I was doing and knew it was treasonous. If you fail to
punish me, men will believe that we connived together to free Jaime Lannister. It was mine own act and
mine alone, and I alone must answer for it. Put me in the Kingslayer's empty irons, and I will wear them
proudly, if that is how it must be."
"Fetters?" The very word seemed to shock poor Ser Desmond. "For the king's mother, my lord's own
daughter? Impossible."
"Mayhaps," said the steward Utherydes Wayn, "my lady would consent to be confined to her chambers
until Ser Edmure returns. A time alone, to pray for her murdered sons?"
"Confined, aye," Ser Desmond said. "Confined to a tower cell, that would serve."
"If I am to be confined, let it be in my father's chambers, so I might comfort him in his last days."
Ser Desmond considered a moment. "Very well. You shall lack no comfort nor courtesy, but freedom of
the castle is denied you. Visit the sept as you need, but elsewise remain in Lord Hoster's chambers until
Lord Edmure returns."
"As you wish." Her brother was no lord while their father lived, but Catelyn did not correct him. "Set a
guard on me if you must, but I give you my pledge that I shall attempt no escape."
Ser Desmond nodded, plainly glad to be done with his distasteful task, but sad-eyed Utherydes Wayn
lingered a moment after the castellan took his leave. "It was a grave thing you did, my lady, but for
naught. Ser Desmond has sent Ser Robin Ryger after them, to bring back the Kingslayer ... or failing that,
his head."
Catelyn had expected no less. May the Warrior give strength to your sword arm, Brienne, she prayed.
She had done all she could; nothing remained but to hope.
Her things were moved into her father's bedchamber, dominated by the great canopied bed she had
been born in, its pillars carved in the shapes of leaping trout. Her father himself had been moved half a
turn down the stair, his sickbed placed to face the triangular balcony that opened off his solar, from
whence he could see the rivers that he had always loved so well.
Lord Hoster was sleeping when Catelyn entered. She went out to the balcony and stood with one hand
on the rough stone balustrade. Beyond the point of the castle the swift Tumblestone joined the placid Red
Fork, and she could see a long way downriver. If a striped sail comes from the east, it will be Ser Robin
returning. For the moment the surface of the waters was empty. She thanked the gods for that, and went
back inside to sit with her father.
Catelyn could not say if Lord Hoster knew that she was there, or if her presence brought him any


comfort, but it gave her solace to be with him. What would you say if you knew my crime, Father? she
wondered. Would you have done as I did, if it were Lysa and me in the hands of our enemies? Or would
you condemn me too, and call it mother's madness?
There was a smell of death about that room; a heavy smell, sweet and
foul, clinging. It reminded her of the sons that she had lost, her sweet Bran and her little Rickon, slain at
the hand of Theon Greyjoy, who had been Ned's ward. She still grieved for Ned, she would always
grieve for Ned, but to have her babies taken as well . . . "It is a monstrous cruel thing to lose a child," she
whispered softly, more to herself than to her father.
Lord Hoster's eyes opened. "Tansy," he husked in a voice thick with pain.
He does not know me. Catelyn had grown accustomed to him taking her for her mother or her sister
Lysa, but Tansy was a name strange to her. "It's Catelyn," she said. "It's Cat, Father."
"Forgive me ... the blood ... oh, please ... Tansy . . .
Could there have been another woman in her father's life? Some village maiden he had wronged when he
was young, perhaps? Could he have found comfort in some serving wench's arms after Mother died? It
was a queer thought, unsettling. Suddenly she felt as though she had not known her father at all. "Who is
Tansy, my lord? Do you want me to send for her, Father? Where would I find the woman? Does she still
live?"
Lord Hoster groaned. "Dead." His hand groped for hers. "You'll have others ... sweet babes, and
trueborn."
Others? Catelyn thought. Has he forgotten that Ned is gone? Is he still talking to Tansy, or is it me now,
or Lysa, or Mother?
When he coughed, the sputum came up bloody. He clutched her fingers. ". . be a good wife and the
gods will bless you ... sons ... truebom sons ... aaahhh." The sudden spasm of pain made Lord Hoster's
hand tighten. His nails dug into her hand, and he gave a muffled scream.
Maester Vyman came quickly, to mix another dose of milk of the poppy and help his lord swallow it
down. Soon enough, Lord Hoster Tully had fallen back into a heavy sleep.
"He was asking after a woman," said Cat. "Tansy."
"Tansy?" The maester looked at her blankly.
"You know no one by that name? A serving girl, a woman from some nearby village? Perhaps someone
from years past?" Catelyn had been gone from Riven-an for a very long time.
"No, my lady. I can make inquiries, if you like. Utherydes Wayn would surely know if any such person
ever served at Riverrun. Tansy, did you say? The smallfolk often name their daughters after flowers and
herbs." The maester looked thoughtful. "There was a widow, I recall, she used to come to the castle
looking for old shoes in need of new soles. Her name was Tansy, now that I think on it. Or was it Pansy?
Some such. But she has not come for many years..."
"Her name was Violet," said Catelyn, who remembered the old woman very well.


"Was it?" The maester looked apologetic. "My pardons, Lady Catelyn, but I may not stay. Ser
Desmond has decreed that we are to speak to you only so far as our duties require."
"Then you must do as he commands." Catelyn could not blame Ser Desmond; she had given him small
reason to trust her, and no doubt he feared that she might use the loyalty that many of the folk of Riverrun
would still feel toward their lord's daughter to work some further mischief. I am free of the war, at least,
she told herself, if only for a little while.
After the maester had gone, she donned a woolen cloak and stepped out onto the balcony once more.
Sunlight shimmered on the rivers, gilding the surface of the waters as they rolled past the castle. Catelyn
shaded her eyes against the glare, searching for a distant sail, dreading the sight of one. But there was
nothing, and nothing meant that her hopes were still alive.
All that day she watched, and well into the night, until her legs ached from the standing. A raven came to
the castle in late afternoon, flapping down on great black wings to the rookery. Dark wings, dark words,
she thought, remembering the last bird that had come and the horror it had brought.
Maester Vyman returned at evenfall to minister to Lord Tully and bring Catelyn a modest supper of
bread, cheese, and boiled beef with horseradish. "I spoke to Utherydes Wayn, my lady. He is quite
certain that no woman by the name of Tansy has ever been at Riverrun during his service."
"There was a raven today, I saw. Has Jaime been taken again?" Or slain, gods forbid?
"No, my lady, we've had no word of the Kingslayer."
"Is it another battle, then? is Edmure in difficulty? Or Robb? Please, be kind, put my fears at rest."
"My lady, I should not..." Vyman glanced about, as if to make certain no one else was in the room.
"Lord Tywin has left the riverlands. All's quiet on the fords."
"Whence came the raven, then?"
"From the west," he answered, busying himself with Lord Hoster's bedclothes and avoiding her eyes.
"Was it news of Robb?"
He hesitated. "Yes, my lady."
"Something is wrong." She knew it from his manner. He was hiding something from her. "Tell me. Is it
Robb? Is he hurt?" Not dead, gods be good, please do not tell me that he is dead.
"His Grace took a wound storming the Crag," Maester Vyman said, still evasive, "but writes that it is no
cause for concern, and that he hopes to return soon."
"A wound? What sort of wound? How serious?"
"No cause for concern, he writes."
"All wounds concern me. Is he being cared for?"


"I am certain of it. The maester at the Crag will tend to him, I have no doubt."
"Where was he wounded?"
"My lady, I am commanded not to speak with you. I am sorry." Gathering up his potions, Vyman made
a hurried exit, and once again Catelyn was left alone with her father. The milk of the poppy had done its
work, and Lord Hoster was sunk in heavy sleep. A thin line of spittle ran down from one comer of his
open mouth to dampen his pillow. Catelyn took a square of linen and wiped it away gently. When she
touched him, Lord Hoster moaned. "Forgive me," he said, so softly she could scarcely hear the words.
"Tansy ... blood ... the blood ... gods be kind..."
His words disturbed her more than she could say, though she could make no sense of them. Blood, she
thought. Must it all come back to blood? Father, who was this woman, and what did you do to her that
needs so much forgiveness?
That night Catelyn slept fitfully, haunted by formless dreams of her children, the lost and the dead. Well
before the break of day, she woke with her father's words echoing in her ears. Sweet babes, and
trueborn ... why would he say that, unless ... could he have fathered a bastard on this woman Tansy? She
could not believe it. Her brother Edmure, yes; it would not have surprised her to learn that Edmure had a
dozen natural children. But not her father, not Lord Hoster Tully, never.
Could Tansy be some pet name he called Lysa, the way he called me Cat? Lord Hoster had mistaken
her for her sister before. You'll have others, he said. Sweet babes, and trueborn. Lysa had miscarried
five times, twice in the Eyrie, thrice at King's Landing ... but never at Riverrun, where Lord Hoster would
have been at hand to comfort her. Never, unless ... unless she was with child, that first time ...
She and her sister had been married on the same day, and left in their father's care when their new
husbands had ridden off to rejoin Robert's rebellion. Afterward, when their moon blood did not come at
the accustomed time, Lysa had gushed happily of the sons she was certain they carried. "Your son will be
heir to Winterfell and mine to the Eyrie. Oh, they'll be the best of friends, like your Ned and Lord Robert.
They'll be more brothers than cousins, truly, I just know it." She was so happy.
But Lysa's blood had come not long after, and all the joy had gone out of her. Catelyn had always
thought that Lysa had simply been a little late, but if she had been with child ...
She remembered the first time she gave her sister Robb to hold; small, red-faced, and squalling, but
strong even then, full of life. No sooner had
Catelyn placed the babe in her sister's arms than Lysa's face dissolved into tears. Hurriedly she had
thrust the baby back at Catelyn and fled.
If she had lost a child before, that might explain Father's words, and much else besides ... Lysa's match
with Lord Arryn had been hastily arranged, and Jon was an old man even then, older than their father. An
old man without an heir. His first two wives had left him childless, his brother's son had been murdered
with Brandon Stark in King's Landing, his gallant cousin had died in the Battle of the Bells. He needed a
young wife if House Arryn was to continue ... a young wife known to be fertile.
Catelyn rose, threw on a robe, and descended the steps to the darkened solar to stand over her father.
A sense of helpless dread filled her. "Father," she said, "Father, I know what you did." She was no longer
an innocent bride with a head full of dreams. She was a widow, a traitor, a grieving mother, and wise,
wise in the ways of the world. "You made him take her," she whispered. "Lysa was the price Jon Arryn


had to pay for the swords and spears of House Tully."
Small wonder her sister's marriage had been so loveless. The Arryns were proud, and prickly of their
honor. Lord Jon might wed Lysa to bind the Tullys to the cause of the rebellion, and in hopes of a son,
but it would have been hard for him to love a woman who came to his bed soiled and unwilling. He
would have been kind, no doubt; dutiful, yes; but Lysa needed warmth.
The next day, as she broke her fast, Catelyn asked for quill and paper and began a letter to her sister in
the Vale of Arryn. She told Lysa of Bran and Rickon, struggling with the words, but mostly she wrote of
their father. His thoughts are all of the wrong he did you, now that his time grows short. Maester Vyman
says he dare not make the milk of the poppy any stronger. It is time for Father to lay down his sword and
shield. It is time for him to rest. Yet he fights on grimly, will not yield. It is for your sake, I think. He needs
your forgiveness. The war has made the road from the Eyrie to Riverrun dangerous to travel, I know, but
surely a strong force of knights could see you safely through the Mountains of the Moon? A hundred
men, or a thousand? And if you cannot come, will you not write him at least? A few words of love, so he
might die in peace? Write what you will, and I shall read it to him, and ease his way.
Even as she set the quill aside and asked for sealing wax, Catelyn sensed that the letter was like to be
too little and too late. Maester Vyman did not believe Lord Hoster would linger long enough for a raven
to reach the Eyrie and return. Though he has said much the same before ... Tully men did not surrender
easily, no matter the odds. After she entrusted the parchment to the maester's care, Catelyn went to the
sept and lit a candle to the Father Above for her own father's sake, a second to the Crone,
who had let the first raven into the world when she peered through the door of death, and a third to the
Mother, for Lysa and all the children they had both lost.
Later that day, as she sat at Lord Hoster's bedside with a book, reading the same passage over and
over, she heard the sound of loud voices and a trumpet's blare. Ser Robin, she thought at once, flinching.
She went to the balcony, but there was nothing to be seen out on the rivers, but she could hear the voices
more clearly from outside, the sound of many horses, the clink of armor, and here and there a cheer.
Catelyn made her way up the winding stairs to the roof of the keep. Ser Desmond did not forbid me the
roof, she told herself as she climbed.
The sounds were coming from the far side of the castle, by the main gate. A knot of men stood before
the portcullis as it rose in jerks and starts, and in the fields beyond, outside the castle, were several
hundred riders. When the wind blew, it lifted their banners, and she trembled in relief at the sight of the
leaping trout of Riverrun. Edmure.
It was two hours before he saw fit to come to her. By then the castle rang to the sound of noisy reunions
as men embraced the women and children they had left behind. Three ravens had risen from the rookery,
black wings beating at the air as they took flight. Catelyn watched them from her father's balcony. She
had washed her hair, changed her clothing, and prepared herself for her brother's reproaches ... but even
so, the waiting was hard.
When at last she heard sounds outside her door, she sat and folded her hands in her lap. Dried red mud
spattered Edmure's boots, greaves, and surcoat. To look at him, you would never know he had won his
battle. He was thin and drawn, with pale cheeks, unkempt beard, and too-bright eyes.
"Edmure," Catelyn said, worried, "you look unwell. Has something happened? Have the Lannisters
crossed the river?"


"I threw them back. Lord Tywin, Gregor Clegane, Addam Marbrand, I turned them away. Stannis,
though . . . " He grimaced.
"Stannis? What of Stannis?"
"He lost the battle at King's Landing," Edmure said unhappily. "His fleet was burned, his army routed."
A Lannister victory was ill tidings, but Catelyn could not share her brother's obvious dismay. She still
had nightmares about the shadow she had seen slide across Renly's tent and the way the blood had come
flowing out through the steel of his gorget. "Stannis was no more a friend than Lord Tywin."
"You do not understand. Highgarden has declared for Joffrey. Dome as well. All the south." His mouth
tightened. "And you see fit to loose the Kingslayer. You had no right."
"I had a mother's right." Her voice was calm, though the news about Highgarden was a savage blow to
Robb's hopes. She could not think about that now, though.
"No right," Edmure repeated. "He was Robb's captive, your king's captive, and Robb charged me to
keep him safe."
"Brienne will keep him safe. She swore it on her sword."
"That woman?"
"She will deliver Jaime to King's Landing, and bring Arya and Sansa back to us safely."
"Cersei will never give them up."
"Not Cersei. Tyrion. He swore it, in open court. And the Kingslayer swore it as well."
"Jaime's word is worthless. As for the Imp, it's said he took an axe in the head during the battle. He'll be
dead before your Brienne reaches King's Landing, if she ever does."
"Dead?" Could the gods truly be so merciless? She had made Jaime swear a hundred oaths, but it was
his brother's promise she had pinned her hopes on.
Edmure was blind to her distress. "Jaime was my charge, and I mean to have him back. I've sent ravens
"Ravens to whom? How many?"
"Three," he said, "so the message will be certain to reach Lord Bolton. By river or road, the way from
Riverrun to King's Landing must needs take them close by Harrenhal."
"Harrenhal." The very word seemed to darken the room. Horror thickened her voice as she said,
"Edmure, do you know what you have done?"
"Have no fear, I left your part out. I wrote that Jaime had escaped, and offered a thousand dragons for
his recapture."
Worse and worse, Catelyn thought in despair. My brother is a fool. Unbidden, unwanted, tears filled her
eyes. "If this was an escape," she said softly, "and not an exchange of hostages, why should the


Lannisters give my daughters to Brienne?"
"It will never come to that. The Kingslayer will be returned to us, I have made certain of it."
"All you have made certain is that I shall never see my daughters again. Brienne might have gotten him to
King's Landing safely ... so long as no one was hunting for them. But now. . . " Catelyn could not go on.
"Leave me, Edmure." She had no right to command him, here in the castle that would soon be his, yet her
tone would brook no argument. "Leave me to Father and my grief, I have no more to say to you. Go.
Go." All she wanted was to lie down, to close her eyes and sleep, and pray no dreams would come.
Chapter 3
ARYA
The sky was as black as the walls of Harrenhal behind them, and the rain fell soft and steady, muffling
the sound of their horses' hooves and running down their faces.
They rode north, away from the lake, following a rutted farm road across the torn fields and into the
woods and streams. Arya took the lead, kicking her stolen horse to a brisk heedless trot until the trees
closed in around her. Hot Pie and Gendry followed as best they could. Wolves howled off in the
distance, and she could hear Hot Pie's heavy breathing. No one spoke. From time to time Arya glanced
over her shoulder, to make sure the two boys had not fallen too far behind, and to see if they were being
pursued.
They would be, she knew. She had stolen three horses from the stables and a map and a dagger from
Roose Bolton's own solar, and killed a guard on the postern gate, slitting his throat when he knelt to pick
up the worn iron coin that jaqen H'ghar had given her. Someone would find him lying dead in his own
blood, and then the hue and cry would go up. They would wake Lord Bolton and search Harrenhal from
crenel to cellar, and when they did they would find the map and the dagger missing, along with some
swords from the armory, bread and cheese from the kitchens, a baker boy, a 'prentice smith, and a
cupbearer called Nan ... or Weasel, or Arry, depending on who you asked.
The Lord of the Dreadfort would not come after them himself. Roose Bolton would stay abed, his pasty
flesh dotted with leeches, giving commands in his whispery soft voice. His man Walton might lead the
hunt, the one they called Steelshanks for the greaves he always wore on his
long legs. Or perhaps it would be slobbery Vargo Hoat and his sellswords, who named themselves the
Brave Companions. others called them Bloody Mummers (though never to their faces), and sometimes
the Footmen, for Lord Vargo's habit of cutting off the hands and feet of men who displeased him.
If they catch us, he'll cut off our hands and feet, Arya thought, and then Roose Bolton will peel the skin
off us. She was still dressed in her page's garb, and on the breast over her heart was sewn Lord Bolton's
sigil, the flayed man of the Dreadfort.
Every time she looked back, she half expected to see a blaze of torches pouring out the distant gates of
Harrenhal or rushing along the tops of its huge high walls, but there was nothing. Harrenhal slept on, until
it was lost in darkness and hidden behind the trees.


When they crossed the first stream, Arya turned her horse aside and led them off the road, following the
twisting course of the water for a quarter-mile before finally scrambling out and up a stony bank. If the
hunters brought dogs, that might throw them off the scent, she hoped. They could not stay on the road.
There is death on the road, she told herself, death on all the roads.
Gendry and Hot Pie did not question her choice. She had the map, after all, and Hot Pie seemed almost
as terrified of her as of the men who might be coming after them. He had seen the guard she'd killed. It's
better if he's scared of me, she told herself. That way he'll do like I say, instead of something stupid.
She should be more frightened herself, she knew. She was only ten, a skinny girl on a stolen horse with a
dark forest ahead of her and men behind who would gladly cut off her feet. Yet somehow she felt calmer
than she ever had in Harrenhal. The rain had washed the guard's blood off her fingers, she wore a sword
across her back, wolves were prowling through the dark like lean grey shadows, and Arya Stark was
unafraid. Fear cuts deeper than swords, she whispered under her breath, the words that Syrio Forel had
taught her, and jaqen's words too, valar morghulis.
The rain stopped and started again and stopped once more and started, but they had good cloaks to
keep the water off. Arya kept them moving at a slow steady pace. It was too black beneath the trees to
ride any faster; the boys were no horsemen, neither one, and the soft broken ground was treacherous
with half-buried roots and hidden stones. They crossed another road, its deep ruts filled with runoff, but
Arya shunned it. Up and down the rolling hills she took them, through brambles and briars and tangles of
underbrush, along the bottoms of narrow gullies where branches heavy with wet leaves slapped at their
faces as they passed.
Gendry's mare lost her footing in the mud once, going down hard on
her hindquarters and spilling him from the saddle, but neither horse nor rider was hurt, and Gendry got
that stubborn look on his face and mounted right up again. Not long after, they came upon three wolves
devouring the corpse of a fawn. When Hot Pie's horse caught the scent, he shied and bolted. Two of the
wolves fled as well, but the third raised his head and bared his teeth, prepared to defend his kill. "Back
off," Arya told Gendry. "Slow, so you don't spook him." They edged their mounts away, until the wolf
and his feast were no longer in sight. Only then did she swing about to ride after Hot Pie, who was
clinging desperately to the saddle as he crashed through the trees.
Later they passed through a burned village, threading their way carefully between the shells of blackened
hovels and past the bones of a dozen dead men hanging from a row of apple trees. When Hot Pie saw
them he began to pray, a thin whispered plea for the Mother's mercy, repeated over and over. Arya
looked up at the fleshless dead in their wet rotting clothes and said her own prayer. Ser Gregor, it went,
Dunsen, Polliver, Raff the Sweetling. The Tickler and the Hound. Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, King loffrey,
Queen Cersei. She ended it with valar morghulis, touched jaqen's coin where it nestled under her belt,
and then reached up and plucked an apple from among the dead men as she rode beneath them. It was
mushy and overripe, but she ate it worms and all.
That was the day without a dawn. Slowly the sky lightened around them, but they never saw the sun.
Black turned to grey, and colors crept timidly back into the world. The soldier pines were dressed in
somber greens, the broadleafs in russets and faded golds already beginning to brown. They stopped long
enough to water the horses and eat a cold, quick breakfast, ripping apart a loaf of the bread that Hot Pie
had stolen from the kitchens and passing chunks of hard yellow cheese from hand to hand.
"Do you know where we're going?" Gendry asked her.


"North," said Arya.
Hot Pie peered around uncertainly. "Which way is north?"
She used her cheese to point. "That way."
"But there's no sun. How do you know?"
"From the moss. See how it grows mostly on one side of the trees? That's south."
"What do we want with the north?" Gendry wanted to know.
"The Trident." Arya unrolled the stolen map to show them. "See? Once we reach the Trident, all we
need to do is follow it upstream till we come to Riverrun, here." Her finger traced the path. "It's a long
way, but we can't get lost so long as we keep to the river."
Hot Pie blinked at the map. "Which one is Riverrun?"
Riverrun was painted as a castle tower, in the fork between the flowing
blue lines of two rivers, the Tumblestone and the Red Fork. "There." She touched it. "Riverrun, it reads."
"You can read writing?" he said to her, wonderingly, as if she'd said she could walk on water.
She nodded. "We'll be safe once we reach Riverrun."
"We will? Why?"
Because Riverrun is my grandfather's castle, and my brother Robb will be there, she wanted to say. She
bit her lip and rolled up the map. "We just will. But only if we get there." She was the first one back in the
saddle. It made her feel bad to hide the truth from Hot Pie, but she did not trust him with her secret.
Gendry knew, but that was different. Gendry had his own secret, though even he didn't seem to know
what it was.
That day Arya quickened their pace, keeping the horses to a trot as long as she dared, and sometimes
spurring to a gallop when she spied a flat stretch of fleld before them. That was seldom enough, though;
the ground was growing hillier as they went. The hills were not high, nor especially steep, but there
seemed to be no end of them, and they soon grew tired of climbing up one and down the other, and
found themselves following the lay of the land, along streambeds and through a maze of shallow wooded
valleys where the trees made a solid canopy overhead.
From time to time she sent Hot Pie and Gendry on while she doubled back to try to confuse their trail,
listening all the while for the first sign of pursuit. Too slow, she thought to herself, chewing her lip, we're
going too slow, they'll catch us for certain. once, from the crest of a ridge, she spied dark shapes crossing
a stream in the valley behind them, and for half a heartbeat she feared that Roose Bolton's riders were on
them, but when she looked again she realized they were only a pack of wolves. She cupped her hands
around her mouth and howled down at them, "Ahooooooooo, ahooooooooo." When the largest of the
wolves lifted its head and howled back, the sound made Arya shiver.
By midday Hot Pie had begun to complain. His arse was sore, he told them, and the saddle was rubbing


him raw inside his legs, and besides he had to get some sleep. "I'm so tired I'm going to fall off the horse."
Arya looked at Gendry. "If he falls off, who do you think will find him first, the wolves or the
Mummers?"
"The wolves," said Gendry. "Better noses."
Hot Pie opened his mouth and closed it. He did not fall off his horse. The rain began again a short time
later. They still had not seen so much as a glimpse of the sun. It was growing colder, and pale white mists
were threading between the pines and blowing across the bare burned flelds.
Gendry was having almost as bad a time of it as Hot Pie, though he was too stubborn to complain. He
sat awkwardly in the saddle, a
determined look on his face beneath his shaggy black hair, but Arya could tell he was no horseman. I
should have remembered, she thought to herself. She had been riding as long as she could remember,
ponies when she was little and later horses, but Gendry and Hot Pie were city-born, and in the city
smallfolk walked. Yoren had given them mounts when he took them from King's Landing, but sitting on a
donkey and plodding up the kingsroad behind a wagon was one thing. Guiding a hunting horse through
wild woods and burned fields was something else.
She would make much better time on her own, Arya knew, but she could not leave them. They were her
pack, her friends, the only living friends that remained to her, and if not for her they would still be safe at
Harrenhal, Gendry sweating at his forge and Hot Pie in the kitchens. If the Mummers catch us, I'll tell
them that I'm Ned Stark's daughter and sister to the King in the North. I'll command them to take me to
my brother, and to do no harm to Hot Pie and Gendry. They might not believe her, though, and even if
they did ... Lord Bolton was her brother's bannerman, but he frightened her all the same. I won't let them
take us, she vowed silently, reaching back over her shoulder to touch the hilt of the sword that Gendry
had stolen for her. I won't.
Late that afternoon, they emerged from beneath the trees and found themselves on the banks of a river.
Hot Pie gave a whoop of delight. "The Trident! Now all we have to do is go upstream, like you said.
We're almost there!"
Arya chewed her lip. "I don't think this is the Trident." The river was swollen by the rain, but even so it
couldn't be much more than thirty feet across. She remembered the Trident as being much wider. "It's too
little to be the Trident," she told them, "and we didn't come far enough."
"Yes we did," Hot Pie insisted. "We rode all day, and hardly stopped at all. We must have come a long
way."
"Let's have a look at that map again," said Gendry.
Arya dismounted, took out the map, unrolled it. The rain pattered against the sheepskin and ran off in
rivulets. "We're someplace here, I think," she said, pointing, as the boys peered over her shoulders.
"But," said Hot Pie, "that's hardly any ways at all. See, Harrenhal's there by your finger, you're almost
touching it. And we rode all day!"
"There's miles and miles before we reach the Trident," she said. "We won't be there for days. This must
be some different river, one of these, see." She showed him some of the thinner blue lines the mapmaker


had painted in, each with a name painted in flne script beneath it. "The Darry, the Greenapple, the
Maiden ... here, this one, the Little Willow, it might be that."
Hot Pie looked from the line to the river. "It doesn't look so little to me."
Gendry was frowning as well. "The one you're pointing at runs into that other one, see."
"The Big Willow," she read.
"The Big Willow, then. See, and the Big Willow runs into the Trident, so we could follow the one to the
other, but we'd need to go downstream, not up. Only if this river isn't the Little Willow, if it's this other
one here..."
"Rippledown Rill," Arya read.
"See, it loops around and flows down toward the lake, back to Harrenhal." He traced the line with a
finger.
Hot Pie's eyes grew wide. "No! They'll kill us for sure."
"We have to know which river this is," declared Gendry, in his stubbornest voice. "We have to know."
"Well, we don't." The map might have names written beside the blue lines, but no one had written a
name on the riverbank. "We won't go up or downstream," she decided, rolling up the map. "We'll cross
and keep going north, like we were."
"Can horses swim?" asked Hot Pie. "It looks deep, Arry. What if there are snakes? "
"Are you sure we're going north?" asked Gendry. "All these hills ... if we got turned around..."
"The moss on the trees -
He pointed to a nearby tree. "That tree's got moss on three sides, and that next one has no moss at all.
We could be lost, just riding around in a circle."
"We could be," said Arya, "but I'm going to cross the river anyway. You can come or you can stay
here." She climbed back into the saddle, ignoring the both of them. If they didn't want to follow, they
could find Riverrun on their own, though more likely the Mummers would just find them.
She had to ride a good half mile along the bank before she finally found a place where it looked as
though it might be safe to cross, and even then her mare was reluctant to enter the water. The river,
whatever its name, was running brown and fast, and the deep part in the middle came up past the horse's
belly. Water filled her boots, but she pressed in her heels all the same and climbed out on the far bank.
From behind she heard splashing, and a mare's nervous whinny. They followed, then. Good. She turned
to watch as the boys struggled across and emerged dripping beside her. "It wasn't the Trident," she told
them. "It wasn't."
The next river was shallower and easier to ford. That one wasn't the Trident either, and no one argued
with her when she told them they would cross it.
Dusk was settling as they stopped to rest the horses once more and


share another meal of bread and cheese. "I'm cold and wet," Hot Pie complained. "We're a long way
from Harrenhal now, for sure. We could have us a fire - "
"NO!" Arya and Gendry both said, at the exact same instant. Hot Pie quailed a little. Arya gave Gendry
a sideways look. He said it with me, like [on used to do, back in Winterfell. She missed Jon Snow the
most of all her brothers.
"Could we sleep at least?" Hot Pie asked. "I'm so tired, Arry, and my arse is sore. I think I've got
blisters."
"You'll have more than that if you're caught," she said. "We've got to keep going. We've got to."
"But it's almost dark, and you can't even see the moon."
"Get back on your horse."
Plodding along at a slow walking pace as the light faded around them, Arya found her own exhaustion
weighing heavy on her. She needed sleep as much as Hot Pie, but they dare not. If they slept, they might
open their eyes to find Vargo Hoat standing over them with Shagwell the Fool and Faithful Urswyck and
Rorge and Biter and Septon Utt and all his other monsters.
Yet after a while the motion of her horse became as soothing as the rocking of a cradle, and Arya found
her eyes growing heavy. She let them close, just for an instant, then snapped them wide again. I can't go
to sleep, she screamed at herself silently, I can't, I can't. She knuckled at her eye and rubbed it hard to
keep it open, clutching the reins tightly and kicking her mount to a canter. But neither she nor the horse
could sustain the pace, and it was only a few moments before they fell back to a walk again, and a few
more until her eyes closed a second time. This time they did not open quite so quickly.
When they did, she found that her horse had come to a stop and was nibbling at a tuft of grass, while
Gendry was shaking her arm. "You fell asleep," he told her.
"I was just resting my eyes."
"You were resting them a long while, then. Your horse was wandering in a circle, but it wasn't till she
stopped that I realized you were sleeping. Hot Pie's just as bad, he rode into a tree limb and got knocked
off, you should have heard him yell. Even that didn't wake you up. You need to stop and sleep."
"I can keep going as long as you can." She yawned.
"Liar," he said. "You keep going if you want to be stupid, but I'm stopping. I'll take the first watch. You
sleep."
"What about Hot Pie?"
Gendry pointed. Hot Pie was already on the ground, curled up beneath his cloak on a bed of damp
leaves and snoring softly. He had a big wedge
of cheese in one fist, but it looked as though he had fallen asleep between bites.
It was no good arguing, Arya realized; Gendry had the right of it. The Mummers will need to sleep too,


she told herself, hoping it was true. She was so weary it was a struggle even to get down from the saddle,
but she remembered to hobble her horse before finding a place beneath a beech tree. The ground was
hard and damp. She wondered how long it would be before she slept in a bed again, with hot food and a
fire to warm her. The last thing she did before closing her eyes was unsheathe her sword and lay it down
beside her. "Ser Gregor," she whispered, yawning. "Dunsen, Polliver, Raff the Sweetling. The Tickler and
... the Tickler ... the Hound . . . "
Her dreams were red and savage. The Mummers were in them, four at least, a pale Lyseni and a dark
brutal axeman from 1b, the scarred Dothraki horse lord called Iggo and a Dornishman whose name she
never knew. On and on they came, riding through the rain in rusting mail and wet leather, swords and axe
clanking against their saddles. They thought they were hunting her, she knew with all the strange sharp
certainty of dreams, but they were wrong. She was hunting them.
She was no little girl in the dream; she was a wolf, huge and powerful, and when she emerged from
beneath the trees in front of them and bared her teeth in a low rumbling growl, she could smell the rank
stench of fear from horse and man alike. The Lyseni's mount reared and screamed in terror, and the
others shouted at one another in mantalk, but before they could act the other wolves came hurtling from
the darkness and the rain, a great pack of them, gaunt and wet and silent.
The fight was short but bloody. The hairy man went down as he unslung his axe, the dark one died
stringing an arrow, and the pale man from Lys tried to bolt. Her brothers and sisters ran him down,
turning him again and again, coming at him from all sides, snapping at the legs of his horse and tearing the
throat from the rider when he came crashing to the earth.
Only the belled man stood his ground. His horse kicked in the head of one of her sisters, and he cut
another almost in half with his curved silvery claw as his hair tinkled softly.
Filled with rage, she leapt onto his back, knocking him head-first from his saddle. Her jaws locked on
his arm as they fell, her teeth sinking through the leather and wool and soft flesh. When they landed she
gave a savage jerk with her head and ripped the limb loose from his shoulder. Exulting, she shook it back
and forth in her mouth, scattering the warm red droplets amidst the cold black rain.
Chapter 4
TYRION
He woke to the creak of old iron hinges.
Who?" he croaked. At least he had his voice back, raw and" hoarse though it was. The fever was still on
him, and Tyrion had no notion of the hour. How long had he slept this time? He was so weak, so
damnably weak. "Who?" he called again, more loudly. Torchlight spilled through the open door, but
within the chamber the only light came from the stub of a candle beside his bed.
When he saw a shape moving toward him, Tyrion shivered. Here in Maegor's Holdfast, every servant
was in the queen's pay, so any visitor might be another of Cersei's catspaws, sent to finish the work Ser
Mandon had begun.


Then the man stepped into the candlelight, got a good look at the dwarf's pale face, and chortled. "Cut
yourself shaving, did you?"
Tyrion's fingers went to the great gash that ran from above one eye down to his jaw, across what
remained of his nose. The proud flesh was still raw and warm to the touch. "With a fearful big razor, yes."
Bronn's coal-black hair was freshly washed and brushed straight back from the hard lines of his face,
and he was dressed in high boots of soft, tooled leather, a wide belt studded with nuggets of silver, and a
cloak of pale green silk. Across the dark grey wool of his doublet, a burning chain was embroidered
diagonally in bright green thread.
"Where have you been?" Tyrion demanded of him. "I sent for you ... it must have been a fortnight ago."
"Four days ago, more like," the sellsword said, "and I've been here twice, and found you dead to the
world."
"Not dead. Though my sweet sister did try." Perhaps he should not have said that aloud, but Tyrion was
past caring. Cersei was behind Ser Mandon's attempt to kill him, he knew that in his gut. "What's that
ugly thing on your chest?"
Brorm grinned. "My knightly sigil. A flaming chain, green, on a smokegrey field. By your lord father's
command, I'm Ser Bronn of the Blackwater now, Imp. See you don't forget it."
Tyrion put his hands on the featherbed and squirmed back a few inches, against the pillows. "I was the
one who promised you knighthood, remember? " He had liked that "by your lord father's command" not
at all. Lord Tywin had wasted little time. Moving his son from the Tower of the Hand to claim it for
himself was a message anyone could read, and this was another. "I lose half my nose and you gain a
knighthood. The gods have a deal to answer for." His voice was sour. "Did my father dub you himself ?"
"No. Them of us as survived the fight at the winch towers got ourselves dabbed by the High Septon and
dubbed by the Kingsguard. Took half the bloody day, with only three of the White Swords left to do the
honors."
"I knew Ser Mandon died in the battle." Shoved into the river by Pod, half a heartbeat before the
treacherous bastard could drive his sword through my heart. "Who else was lost?"
"The Hound," said Bronn. "Not dead, only gone. The gold cloaks say he turned craven and you led a
sortie in his place."
Not one of my better notions. Tyrion could feel the scar tissue pull tight when he frowned. He waved
Brorm toward a chair. "My sister has mistaken me for a mushroom. She keeps me in the dark and feeds
me shit. Pod's a good lad, but the knot in his tongue is the size of Casterly Rock, and I don't trust half of
what he tells me. I sent him to bring Ser jacelyn and he came back and told me he's dead."
"Him, and thousands more." Bronn sat.
"How?" Tyrion demanded, feeling that much sicker.
"During the battle. Your sister sent the Kettleblacks to fetch the king back to the Red Keep, the way I
hear it. When the gold cloaks saw him leavin& half of them decided they'd leave with him. Ironhand put
himself in their path and tried to order them back to the walls. They say Bywater was blistering them


good and almost had'em ready to turn when someone put an arrow through his neck. He didn't seem so
fearsome then, so they dragged him off his horse and killed him."
Another debt to lay at Cersei's door. "My nephew," he said, "Joffrey. Was he in any danger?"
"No more'n some, and less than most."
"Had he suffered any harm? Taken a wound? Mussed his hair, stubbed his toe, cracked a nail?"
"Not as I heard."
"I warned Cersei what would happen. Who commands the gold cloaks now?"
"Your lord father's given them to one of his westermen, some knight named Addam Marbrand."
In most cases the gold cloaks would have resented having an outsider placed over them, but Ser Addam
Marbrand was a shrewd choice. Like Jaime, he was the sort of man other men liked to follow. I have
lost the City Watch. "I sent Pod looking for Shagga, but he's had no luck."
"The Stone Crows are still in the kingswood. Shagga seems to have taken a fancy to the place. Timett
led the Burned Men home, with all the plunder they took from Stannis's camp after the fighting. Chella
turned up with a dozen Black Ears at the River Gate one morning, but your father's red cloaks chased
them off while the Kingslanders threw dung and cheered."
Ingrates. The Black Ears died for them. Whilst Tyrion lay drugged and dreaming, his own blood had
pulled his claws out, one by one. "I want you to go to my sister. Her precious son made it through the
battle unscathed, so Cersei has no more need of a hostage. She swore to free Alayaya once - "
"She did. Eight, nine days ago, after the whipping."
Tyrion shoved himself up higher, ignoring the sudden stab of pain through his shoulder. "Whipping?"
"They tied her to a post in the yard and scourged her, then shoved her out the gate naked and bloody."
She was learning to read, Tyrion thought, absurdly. Across his face the scar stretched tight, and for a
moment it felt as though his head would burst with rage. Alayaya was a whore, true enough, but a
sweeter, braver, more innocent girl he had seldom met. Tyrion had never touched her; she had been no
more than a veil, to hide Shae. In his carelessness, he had never thought what the role might cost her. "I
promised my sister I would treat Tornmen as she treated Alayaya," he remembered aloud. He felt as
though he might retch. "How can I scourge an eight-year-old boy?" But if I don't, Cersei wins.
"You don't have Tommen," Bronn said bluntly. "Once she learned that Ironhand was dead, the queen
sent the Kettleblacks after him, and no one at Rosby had the balls to say them nay."
Another blow; yet a relief as well, he must admit it. He was fond of Tommen. "The Kettleblacks were
supposed to be ours," he reminded Brorm with more than a touch of irritation.
"They were, so long as I could give them two of your pennies for every one they had from the queen, but
now she's raised the stakes. Osney and Osfryd were made knights after the battle, same as me. Gods
know what for, no one saw them do any fighting."


My hirelings betray me, my friends are scourged and shamed, and I lie here rotting, Tyrion thought. I
thought I won the bloody battle. Is this what triumph tastes like? "Is it true that Stannis was put to rout by
Renly's ghost?"
Bronn smiled thinly. "From the winch towers, all we saw was banners in the mud and men throwing
down their spears to run, but there's hundreds in the pot shops and brothels who'll tell you how they saw
Lord Renly kill this one or that one. Most of Stannis's host had been Renly's to start, and they went right
back over at the sight of him in that shiny green armor."
After all his planning, after the sortie and the bridge of ships, after getting his face slashed in two, Tyrion
had been eclipsed by a dead man. ff indeed Renly is dead. Something else he would need to look into.
"How did Stannis escape?"
"His Lyseni kept their galleys out in the bay, beyond your chain. When the battle turned bad, they put in
along the bay shore and took off as many as they could. Men were killing each other to get aboard,
toward the end."
"What of Robb Stark, what has he been doing?"
"There's some of his wolves burning their way down toward Duskendale. Your father's sending this Lord
Tarly to sort them out. I'd half a mind to join him. it's said he's a good soldier, and openhanded with the
plunder."
The thought of losing Bronn was the final straw. "No. Your place is here. You're the captain of the
Hand's guard."
"You're not the Hand," Bronn reminded him sharply. "Your father is, and he's got his own bloody
guard."
"What happened to all the men you hired for me?"
"Some died at the winch towers. That uncle of yours, Ser Kevan, he paid the rest of us and tossed us
out."
"How good of him," Tyrion said acidly. "Does that mean you've lost your taste for gold?"
"Not bloody likely."
"Good," said Tyrion, "because as it happens, I still have need of you. What do you know of Ser
Mandon Moore?"
Bronn laughed. "I know he's bloody well drowned."
"I owe him a great debt, but how to pay it?" He touched his face, feeling the scar. "I know precious little
of the man, if truth be told.
"He had eyes like a fish and he wore a white cloak. What else do you need to know?"
"Everything," said Tyrion, "for a start." What he wanted was proof that Ser Mandon had been Cersei's,
but he dare not say so aloud. In the Red Keep a man did best to hold his tongue. There were rats in the
walls,


and little birds who talked too much, and spiders. "Help me up," he said, struggling with the bedclothes.
"It's time I paid a call on my father, and past time I let myself be seen again."
"Such a pretty sight," mocked Bronn.
"What's half a nose, on a face like mine? But speaking of pretty, is Margaery Tyrell in King's Landing
yet?"
"No. She's coming, though, and the city's mad with love for her. The Tyrells have been carting food up
from Highgarden and giving it away in her name. Hundreds of wayns each day. There's thousands of
Tyrell men swaggering about with little golden roses sewn on their doublets, and not a one is buying his
own wine. Wife, widow, or whore, the women are all giving up their virtue to every peach-fuzz boy with
a gold rose on his teat."
They spit on me, and buy drinks for the Tyrells. Tyrion slid from the bed to the floor. His legs turned
wobbly beneath him, the room spun, and he had to grasp Bronn's arm to keep from pitching headlong
into the rushes. "Pod!" he shouted. "Podrick Payne! Where in the seven hells are you?" Pain gnawed at
him like a toothless dog. Tyrion hated weakness, especially his own. It shamed him, and shame made him
angry. "Pod, get in here!"
The boy came running. When he saw Tyrion standing and clutching Bronn's arm, he gaped at them. "My
lord. You stood. Is that ... do you ... do you need wine? Dreamwine? Should I get the maester? He said
you must stay. Abed, I mean."
"I have stayed abed too long. Bring me some clean garb."
"Garb?"
How the boy could be so clearheaded and resourceful in battle and so confused at all other times Tyrion
could never comprehend. "Clothing," he repeated. "Tunic, doublet, breeches, hose. For me. To dress in.
So I can leave this bloody cell."
It took all three of them to clothe him. Hideous though his face might be, the worst of his wounds was
the one at the juncture of shoulder and arm, where his own mail had been driven back into his armpit by
an arrow. Pus and blood still seeped from the discolored flesh whenever Maester Frenken changed his
dressing, and any movement sent a stab of agony through him.
In the end, Tyrion settled for a pair of breeches and an oversized bed robe that hung loosely about his
shoulders. Bronn yanked his boots onto his feet while Pod went in search of a stick for him to lean on.
He drank a cup of drearnwine to fortify himself. The wine was sweetened with honey, with just enough of
the poppy to make his wounds bearable for a time.
Even so, he was dizzy by the time he turned the latch, and the descent
down the twisting stone steps made his legs tremble. He walked with the stick in one hand and the other
on Pod's shoulder. A serving girl was coming up as they were going down. She stared at them with wide
white eyes, as if she were looking at a ghost. The dwarf has risen from the dead, Tyrion thought. And
look, he's uglier than ever, run tell your friends.
Maegor's Holdfast was the strongest place in the Red Keep, a castle within the castle, surrounded by a


deep dry moat lined with spikes. The drawbridge was up for the night when they reached the door. Ser
Meryn Trant stood before it in his pale armor and white cloak. "Lower the bridge," Tyrion commanded
him.
"The queen's orders are to raise the bridge at night." Ser Meryn had always been Cersei's creature.
"The queen's asleep, and I have business with my father."
There was magic in the name of Lord Tywin Lannister. Grumbling, Ser Meryn Trant gave the command,
and the drawbridge was lowered. A second Kingsguard knight stood sentry across the moat. Ser
Osmund Kettleblack managed a smile when he saw Tyrion waddling toward him. "Feeling stronger,
m'lord?"
"Much. When's the next battle? I can scarcely wait."
When Pod and he reached the serpentine steps, however, Tyrion could only gape at them in dismay. I
will never climb those by myself, he confessed to himself. Swallowing his dignity, he asked Brorm to
carry him, hoping against hope that at this hour there would be no one to see and smile, no one to tell the
tale of the dwarf being carried up the steps like a babe in arms.
The outer ward was crowded with tents and pavilions, dozens of them. "Tyrell men," Podrick Payne
explained as they threaded their way through a maze of silk and canvas. "Lord Rowan's too, and Lord
Redwyne's. There wasn't room enough for all. In the castle, I mean. Some took rooms. Rooms in the
city. In inns and all. They're here for the wedding. The king's wedding, King Joffrey's. Will you be strong
enough to attend, my lord?"
"Ravening weasels could not keep me away." There was this to be said for weddings over battles, at
least; it was less likely that someone would cut off your nose.
Lights still burned dimly behind shuttered windows in the Tower of the Hand. The men on the door wore
the crimson cloaks and lion-crested helms of his father's household guard. Tyrion knew them both, and
they admitted him on sight ... though neither could bear to look long at his face, he noted.
Within they came upon Ser Addam Marbrand, descending the turnpike stair in the ornate black
breastplate and clothof -gold cloak of an officer in the City Watch. "My lord," he said, "how good to see
you on your feet. I'd heard - "
11 - rumors of a small grave being dug? Me too. Under the circumstances it seemed best to get up. I
hear you're commander of the City Watch. Shall I offer congratulations or condolences?"
"Both, I fear." Ser Addam smiled. "Death and desertion have left me with some forty-four hundred. Only
the gods and Littlefinger know how we are to go on paying wages for so many, but your sister forbids
me to dismiss any."
Still anxious, Cersei? The battle's done, the gold cloaks won't help you now "Do you come from my
father?" he asked.
"Aye. I fear I did not leave him in the best of moods. Lord Tywin feels forty-four hundred guardsmen
more than sufficient to find one lost squire, but your cousin Tyrek remains missing."
Tyrek was the son of his late Uncle Tygett, a boy of thirteen. He had vanished in the riot, not long after


wedding the Lady Ermesande, a suckling babe who happened to be the last surviving heir of House
Hayford. And likely the first bride in the history of the Seven Kingdoms to be widowed before she was
weaned. "I couldn't find him either," confessed Tyrion.
"He's feeding worms," said Bronn with his usual tact. "Ironhand looked for him, and the eunuch rattled a
nice fat purse. They had no more luck than we did. Give it up, ser."
Ser Addam gazed at the sellsword with distaste. "Lord Tywin is stubborn where his blood is concerned.
He will have the lad, alive or dead, and I mean to oblige him." He looked back to Tyrion. "You will find
your father in his solar."
My solar, thought Tyrion. "I believe I know the way."
The way was up more steps, but this time he climbed under his own power, with one hand on Pod's
shoulder. Bronn opened the door for him. Lord Tywin Lannister was seated beneath the window, writing
by the glow of an oil lamp. He raised his eyes at the sound of the latch. "Tyrion." Calmly, he laid his quill
aside.
"I'm pleased you remember me, my lord." Tyrion released his grip on Pod, leaned his weight on the
stick, and waddled closer. Something is wrong, he knew at once.
"Ser Bronn," Lord Tywin said, "Podrick. Perhaps you had best wait without until we are done."
The look Bronn gave the Hand was little less than insolent; nonetheless, he bowed and withdrew, with
Pod on his heels. The heavy door swung shut behind them, and Tyrion Lannister was alone with his
father. Even with the windows of the solar shuttered against the night, the chill in the room was palpable.
What sort of lies has Cersei been telling him?
The Lord of Casterly Rock was as lean as a man twenty years younger, even handsome in his austere
way. Stiff blond whiskers covered his
cheeks, framing a stem face, a bald head, a hard mouth. About his throat he wore a chain of golden
hands, the fingers of each clasping the wrist of the next. "That's a handsome chain," Tyrion said. Though it
looked better on me.
Lord Tywin ignored the sally. "You had best be seated. Is it wise for you to be out of your sickbed?"
"I am sick of my sickbed." Tyrion knew how much his father despised weakness. He claimed the nearest
chair. "Such pleasant chambers you have. Would you believe it, while I was dying, someone moved me
to a dark little cell in Maegor's?"
"The Red Keep is overcrowded with wedding guests. Once they depart, we will find you more suitable
accommodations."
"I rather liked these accommodations. Have you set a date for this great wedding?"
"Joffrey and Margaery shall marry on the first day of the new year, which as it happens is also the first
day of the new century. The ceremony will herald the dawn of a new era."
A new Lannister era, thought Tyrion. "Oh, bother, I fear I've made other plans for that day."


"Did you come here just to complain of your bedchamber and make your lame japes? I have important
letters to finish."
"Important letters. To be sure."
"Some battles are won with swords and spears, others with quills and ravens. Spare me these coy
reproaches, Tyrion. I visited your sickbed as often as Maester Ballabar would allow it, when you seemed
like to die." He steepled his fingers under his chin. "Why did you dismiss Ballabar?"
Tyrion shrugged. "Maester Frenken is not so determined to keep me insensate."
"Ballabar came to the city in Lord Redwyne's retinue. A gifted healer, it's said. It was kind of Cersei to
ask him to look after you. She feared for your life."
Feared that I might keep it, you mean. "Doubtless that's why she's never once left my bedside."
"Don't be impertinent. Cersei has a royal wedding to plan, I am waging a war, and you have been out of
danger for at least a fortnight." Lord Tywin studied his son's disfigured face, his pale green eyes
unflinching. "Though the wound is ghastly enough, I'll grant you. What madness possessed you?"
"The foe was at the gates with a battering ram. If Jaime had led the sortie, you'd call it valor."
"Jaime would never be so foolish as to remove his helm in battle. I trust you killed the man who cut
you?"
"Oh, the wretch is dead enough." Though it had been Podrick Payne
who'd killed Ser Mandon, shoving him into the river to drown beneath the weight of his armor. "A dead
enemy is a joy forever," Tyrion said blithely, though Ser Mandon was not his true enemy. The man had
no reason to want him dead. He was only a catspaw, and I believe I know the cat. She told him to make
certain I did not survive the battle. But without proof Lord Tywin would never listen to such a charge.
"Why are you here in the city, Father?" he asked. "Shouldn't you be off fighting Lord Stannis or Robb
Stark or someone?" And the sooner the better.
"Until Lord Redwyne brings his fleet up, we lack the ships to assail Dragonstone. It makes no matter.
Stannis Baratheon's sun set on the Blackwater. As for Stark, the boy is still in the west, but a large force
of northmen under Helman Tallhart and Robett Glover are descending toward Duskendale. I've sent
Lord Tarly to meet them, while Ser Gregor drives up the kingsroad to cut off their retreat. Tallhart and
Glover will be caught between them, with a third of Stark's strength."
"Duskendale?" There was nothing at Duskendale worth such a risk. Had the Young Wolf finally
blundered?
"It's nothing you need trouble yourself with. Your face is pale as death, and there's blood seeping
through your dressings. Say what you want and take yourself back to bed."
"What I want . . . " His throat felt raw and tight. What did he want? More than you can ever give me,
Father. "Pod tells me that Littlefinger's been made Lord of Harrenhal."
"An empty title, so long as Roose Bolton holds the castle for Robb Stark, yet Lord Baelish was desirous
of the honor. He did us good service in the matter of the Tyrell marriage. A Lannister pays his debts."


The Tyrell marriage had been Tyrion's notion, in point of fact, but it would seem churlish to try to claim
that now. "That title may not be as empty as you think," he warned. "Littlefinger does nothing without
good reason. But be that as it may. You said something about paying debts, I believe? "
"And you want your own reward, is that it? Very well. What is it you would have of me? Lands, castle,
some office?"
"A little bloody gratitude would make a nice start."
Lord Tywin stared at him, unblinking. "Mummers and monkeys require applause. So did Aerys, for that
matter. You did as you were commanded, and I am sure it was to the best of your ability. No one denies
the part you played."
"The part I played?" What nostrils Tyrion had left must surely have flared. "I saved your bloody city, it
seems to me."
"Most people seem to feel that it was my attack on Lord Stannis's flank that turned the tide of battle.
Lords Tyrell, Rowan, Redwyne, and Tarly fought nobly as well, and I'm told it was your sister Cersei
who
set the pyromancers to making the wildfire that destroyed the Baratheon fleet."
"While all I did was get my nosehairs trimmed, is that it?" Tyrion could not keep the bitterness out of his
voice.
"Your chain was a clever stroke, and crucial to our victory. Is that what you wanted to hear? I am told
we have you to thank for our Dornish alliance as well. You may be pleased to learn that Myrcella has
arrived safely at Sunspear. Ser Arys Oakheart writes that she has taken a great liking to Princess
Arianne, and that Prince Trystane is enchanted with her. I mislike giving House Martell a hostage, but I
suppose that could not be helped."
"We'll have our own hostage," Tyrion said. "A council seat was also part of the bargain. Unless Prince
Doran brings an army when he comes to claim it, he'll be putting himself in our power."
"Would that a council seat were all Martell came to claim," Lord Tywin said. "You promised him
vengeance as well."
"I promised him justice."
"Call it what you will. It still comes down to blood."
"Not an item in short supply, surely? I splashed through lakes of it during the battle." Tyrion saw no
reason not to cut to the heart of the matter. "Or have you grown so fond of Gregor Clegane that you
cannot bear to part with him?"
"Ser Gregor has his uses, as did his brother. Every lord has need of a beast from time to time ... a lesson
you seem to have learned, judging from Ser Bronn and those clansmen of yours."
Tyrion thought of Timett's burned eye, Shagga with his axe, Chella in her necklace of dried ears. And
Bronn. Brorm most of all. "The woods are full of beasts," he reminded his father. "The alleyways as well."


"True. Perhaps other dogs would hunt as well. I shall think on it. If there is nothing else. . . "
"You have important letters, yes." Tyrion rose on unsteady legs, closed his eyes for an instant as a wave
of dizziness washed over him, and took a shaky step toward the door. Later, he would reflect that he
should have taken a second, and then a third. instead he turned. "What do I want, you ask? I'll tell you
what I want. I want what is mine by rights. I want Casterly Rock."
His father's mouth grew hard. "Your brother's birthright?"
"The knights of the Kingsguard are forbidden to marry, to father children, and to hold land, you know
that as well as I. The day Jaime put on that white cloak, he gave up his claim to Casterly Rock, but never
once have you acknowledged it. It's past time. I want you to stand up before the realm and proclaim that
I am your son and your lawful heir."
Lord Tywin's eyes were a pale green flecked with gold, as luminous
as they were merciless. "Casterly Rock," he declared in a flat cold dead tone. And then, "Never."
The word hung between them, huge, sharp, poisoned.
I knew the answer before I asked, Tyrion said. Eighteen years since Jaime joined the Kingsguard, and I
never once raised the issue. I must have known. I must always have known. "Why?" he made himself
ask, though he knew he would rue the question.
"You ask that? You, who killed your mother to come into the world? You are an ill-made, devious,
disobedient, spiteful little creature full of envy, lust, and low cunning. Men's laws give you the right to bear
my name and display my colors, since I cannot prove that you are not mine. To teach me humility, the
gods have condemned me to watch you waddle about wearing that proud lion that was my father's sigil
and his father's before him. But neither gods nor men shall ever compel me to let you turn Casterly Rock
into your whorehouse."
"My whorehouse?" The dawn broke; Tyrion understood all at once where this bile had come from. He
ground his teeth together and said, "Cersei told you about Alayaya."
"Is that her name? I confess, I cannot remember the names of all your whores. Who was the one you
married as a boy?"
"Tysha." He spat out the answer, defiant.
"And that camp follower on the Green Fork?"
"Why do you care?" he asked, unwilling even to speak Shae's name in his presence.
"I don't. No more than I care if they live or die."
"It was you who had Yaya whipped." It was not a question.
"Your sister told me of your threats against my grandsons." Lord Tywin's voice was colder than ice. "Did
she lie?"


Tyrion would not deny it. "I made threats, yes. To keep Alayaya safe. So the Kettleblacks would not
misuse her."
"To save a whore's virtue, you threatened your own House, your own kin? Is that the way of it?"
"You were the one who taught me that a good threat is often more telling than a blow. Not that Joffrey
hasn't tempted me sore a few hundred times. If you're so anxious to whip people, start with him. But
Tornmen ... why would I harm Tommen? He's a good lad, and mine own blood."
"As was your mother." Lord Tywin rose abruptly, to tower over his dwarf son. "Go back to your bed,
Tyrion, and speak to me no more of your rights to Casterly Rock. You shall have your reward, but it
shall be one I deem appropriate to your service and station. And make no mistake - this was the last time
I will suffer you to bring shame onto House Lannister. You are done with whores. The next one I find in
your bed, I'll hang."
Chapter 5
DAVOS
He watched the sail grow for a long time, trying to decide whether he would sooner live or die.
Dying would be easier, he knew. All he had to do was crawl inside his cave and let the ship pass by, and
death would find him. For days now the fever had been burning through him, turning his bowels to brown
water and making him shiver in his restless sleep. Each morning found him weaker. It will not be much
longer, he had taken to telling himself.
If the fever did not kill him, thirst surely would. He had no fresh water here, but for the occasional rainfall
that pooled in hollows on the rock. Only three days past (or had it been four? On his rock, it was hard to
tell the days apart) his pools had been dry as old bone, and the sight of the bay rippling green and grey all
around him had been almost more than he could bear. Once he began to drink seawater the end would
come swiftly, he knew, but all the same he had almost taken that first swallow, so parched was his throat.
A sudden squall had saved him. He had grown so feeble by then that it was all he could do to lie in the
rain with his eyes closed and his mouth open, and let the water splash down on his cracked lips and
swollen tongue. But afterward he felt a little stronger, and the island's pools and cracks and crevices once
more had brimmed with life.
But that had been three days ago (or maybe four), and most of the water was gone now. Some had
evaporated, and he had sucked up the rest. By the morrow he would be tasting the mud again, and
licking the damp cold stones at the bottom of the depressions.
And if not thirst or fever, starvation would kill him. His island was no more than a barren spire jutting up
out of the immensity of Blackwater Bay. When the tide was low, he could sometimes find tiny crabs
along the stony strand where he had washed ashore after the battle. They nipped his fingers painfully
before he smashed them apart on the rocks to suck the meat from their claws and the guts from their
shells.
But the strand vanished whenever the tide came rushing in, and Davos had to scramble up the rock to


keep from being swept out into the bay once more. The point of the spire was fifteen feet above the
water at high tide, but when the bay grew rough the spray went even higher, so there was no way to
keep dry, even in his cave (which was really no more than a hollow in the rock beneath an overhang).
Nothing grew on the rock but lichen, and even the seabirds shunned the place. Now and again some gulls
would land atop the spire and Davos would try to catch one, but they were too quick for him to get
close. He took to flinging stones at them, but he was too weak to throw with much force, so even when
his stones hit the gulls would only scream at him in annoyance and then take to the air.
There were other rocks visible from his refuge, distant stony spires taller than his own. The nearest stood
a good forty feet above the water, he guessed, though it was hard to be sure at this distance. A cloud of
gulls swirled about it constantly, and often Davos thought of crossing over to raid their nests. But the
water was cold here, the currents strong and treacherous, and he knew he did not have the strength for
such a swim. That would kill him as sure as drinking seawater.
Autumn in the narrow sea could often be wet and rainy, he remembered from years past. The days were
not bad so long as the sun was shining, but the nights were growing colder and sometimes the wind
would come gusting across the bay, driving a line of whitecaps before it, and before long Davos would
be soaked and shivering. Fever and chills assaulted him in turn, and of late he had developed a persistent
racking cough.
His cave was all the shelter he had, and that was little enough. Driftwood and bits of charred debris
would wash up on the strand during low tide, but he had no way to strike a spark or start a fire. Once, in
desperation, he had tried rubbing two pieces of driftwood against each other, but the wood was rotted,
and his efforts earned him only blisters. His clothes were sodden as well, and he had lost one of his boots
somewhere in the bay before he washed up here.
Thirst; hunger; exposure. They were his companions, with him every hour of every day, and in time he
had come to think of them as his friends. Soon enough, one or the other of his friends would take pity on
him and free him from this endless misery. Or perhaps he would simply
walk into the water one day, and strike out for the shore that he knew lay somewhere to the north,
beyond his sight. It was too far to swim, as weak as he was, but that did not matter. Davos had always
been a sailor; he was meant to die at sea. The gods beneath the waters have been waiting for me, he told
himself. It's past time I went to them.
But now there was a sail; only a speck on the horizon, but growing larger. A ship where no ship should
be. He knew where his rock lay, more or less; it was one of a series of sea monts that rose from the floor
of Blackwater Bay. The tallest of them jutted a hundred feet above the tide, and a dozen lesser monts
stood thirty to sixty feet high. Sailors called them spears of the merling king, and knew that for every one
that broke the surface, a dozen lurked treacherously just below it. Any captain with sense kept his course
well away from them.
Davos watched the sail swell through pale red-rimmed eyes, and tried to hear the sound of the wind
caught in the canvas. She is coming this way. Unless she changed course soon, she would pass within
hailing distance of his meager refuge. It might mean life. If he wanted it. He was not sure he did.
Why should I live? he thought as tears blurred his vision. Gods be good, why? My sons are dead, Dale
and Allard, Maric and Matthos, perhaps Devan as well. How can a father outlive so many strong young
sons? How would I go on? I am a hollow shell, the crab's died, there's nothing left inside. Don't they
know that?


They had sailed up the Blackwater Rush flying the fiery heart of the Lord of Light. Davos and Black
Betha had been in the second line of battle, between Dale's Wraith and Allard on Lady Marya. Maric his
thirdborn was oarmaster on Fury, at the center of the first line, while Matthos served as his father's
second. Beneath the walls of the Red Keep Stannis Baratheon's galleys had joined in battle with the boy
king Joffrey's smaller fleet, and for a few moments the river had rung to the thrum of bowstrings and the
crash of iron rams shattering oars and hulls alike.
And then some vast beast had let out a roar, and green flames were all around them: wildfire,
pyromancer's piss, the jade demon. Matthos had been standing at his elbow on the deck of Black Betha
when the ship seemed to lift from the water. Davos found himself in the river, flailing as the current took
him and spun him around and around. Upstream, the flames had ripped at the sky, fifty feet high. He had
seen Black Betha afire, and Fury, and a dozen other ships, had seen burning men leaping into the water
to drown. Wraith and Lady Marya were gone, sunk or shattered or vanished behind a veil of wildfire,
and there was no time to look for them, because the mouth of the river was almost upon him, and across
the mouth of the river the Lannisters had raised a great iron chain. From bank to bank there was nothing
but burning ships and
wildfire. The sight of it seemed to stop his heart for a moment, and he could still remember the sound of
it, the crackle of flames, the hiss of steam, the shrieks of dying men, and the beat of that terrible heat
against his face as the current swept him down toward hell.
All he needed to do was nothing. A few moments more, and he would be with his sons now, resting in
the cool green mud on the bottom of the bay, with fish nibbling at his face.
instead he sucked in a great gulp of air and dove, kicking for the bottom of the river. His only hope was
to pass under the chain and the burning ships and the wildfire that floated on the surface of the water, to
swim hard for the safety of the bay beyond. Davos had always been a strong swimmer, and he'd wom no
steel that day, but for the helm he'd lost when he'd lost Black Betha. As he knifed through the green
murk, he saw other men struggling beneath the water, pulled down to drown beneath the weight of plate
and mail. Davos swam past them, kicking with all the strength left in his legs, giving himself up to the
current, the water filling his eyes. Deeper he went, and deeper, and deeper still. With every stroke it grew
harder to hold his breath. He remembered seeing the bottom, soft and dim, as a stream of bubbles burst
from his lips. Something touched his leg ... a snag or a fish or a drowning man, he could not tell.
He needed air by then, but he was afraid. Was he past the chain yet, was he out in the bay? If he came
up under a ship he would drown, and if he surfaced amidst the floating patches of wildfire his first breath
would sear his lungs to ash. He twisted in the water to look up, but there was nothing to see but green
darkness and then he spun too far and suddenly he could no longer tell up from down. Panic took hold of
him. His hands flailed against the bottom of the river and sent up a cloud of mud that blinded him. His
chest was growing tighter by the instant. He clawed at the water, kicking, pushing himself, turning, his
lungs screaming for air, kicking, kicking, lost now in the river murk, kicking, kicking, kicking until he
could kick no longer. When he opened his mouth to scream, the water came rushing in, tasting of salt,
and Davos Seaworth knew that he was drowning.
The next he knew the sun was up, and he lay upon a stony strand beneath a spire of naked stone, with
the empty bay all around and a broken mast, a burned sail, and a swollen corpse beside him. The mast,
the sail, and the dead man vanished with the next high tide, leaving Davos alone on his rock amidst the
spears of the merling king.
His long years as a smuggler had made the waters around King's Landing more familiar to him than any
home he'd ever had, and he knew his refuge was no more than a speck on the charts, in a place that


honest sailors steered away from, not toward ... though Davos himself had come
by it once or twice in his smuggling days, the better to stay unseen. When they find me dead here, if ever
they do, perhaps they will name the rock for me, he thought. Onion Rock, they'll call it; it will be my
tombstone and my legacy. He deserved no more. The Father protects his children, the septons taught,
but Davos had led his boys into the fire. Dale would never give his wife the child they had prayed for, and
Allard, with his girl in Oldtown and his girl in King's Landing and his girl in Braavos, they would all be
weeping soon. Matthos would never captain his own ship, as he'd dreamed. Maric would never have his
knighthood.
How can I live when they are dead? So many brave knights and mighty lords have died, better men than
me, and highborn. Crawl inside your cave, Davos. Crawl inside and shrink up small and the ship will go
away, and no one will trouble you ever again. Sleep on your stone pillow, and let the gulls peck out your
eyes while the crabs feast on your flesh. You've feasted on enough of them, you owe them. Hide,
smuggler. Hide, and be quiet, and die.
The sail was almost on him. A few moments more, and the ship would be safely past, and he could die in
peace.
His hand reached for his throat, fumbling for the small leather pouch he always wore about his neck.
Inside he kept the bones of the four fingers his king had shortened for him, on the day he made Davos a
knight. My luck. His shortened fingers patted at his chest, groping, finding nothing. The pouch was gone,
and the fingerbones with them. Stannis could never understand why he'd kept the bones. "To remind me
of my king's justice," he whispered through cracked lips. But now they were gone. The fire took my luck
as well as my sons. In his dreams the river was still aflame and demons danced upon the waters with fiery
whips in their hands, while men blackened and burned beneath the lash. "Mother, have mercy," Davos
prayed. "Save me, gentle Mother, save us all. My luck is gone, and my sons." He was weeping freely
now, salt tears streaming down his cheeks. "The fire took it all ... the fire..."
Perhaps it was only wind blowing against the rock, or the sound of the sea on the shore, but for an
instant Davos Seaworth heard her answer. "You called the fire," she whispered, her voice as faint as the
sound of waves in a seashell, sad and soft. "You burned us ... burned us ... burrrmed usssssss."
"It was her!" Davos cried. "Mother, don't forsake us. It was her who burned you, the red woman,
Melisandre, her!" He could see her; the heart-shaped face, the red eyes, the long coppery hair, her red
gowns moving like flames as she walked, a swirl of silk and satin. She had come from Asshai in the east,
she had come to Dragonstone and won Selsye and her queen's men for her alien god, and then the king,
Stannis Baratheon himself. He had gone so far as to put the fiery heart on his banners,
the fiery heart of R'hllor, Lord of Light and God of Flame and Shadow. At Melisandre's urging, he had
dragged the Seven from their sept at Dragonstone and burned them before the castle gates, and later he
had burned the godswood at Storm's End as well, even the heart tree, a huge white weirwood with a
solemn face.
"It was her work," Davos said again, more weakly. Her work, and yours, onion knight. You rowed her
into Storm's End in the black of night, so she might loose her shadow child. You are not guiltless, no.
You rode beneath her banner and flew it from your mast. You watched the Seven bum at Dragonstone,
and did nothing. She gave the Father's justice to the fire, and the Mother's mercy, and the wisdom of the
Crone. Smith and Stranger, Maid and Warrior, she bumt them all to the glory of her cruel god, and you
stood and held your tongue. Even when she killed old Maester Cressen, even then, you did nothing.


The sail was a hundred yards away and moving fast across the bay. In a few more moments it would be
past him, and dwindling.
Ser Davos Seaworth began to climb his rock.
He pulled himself up with trembling hands, his head swimming with fever. Twice his maimed fingers
slipped on the damp stone and he almost fell, but somehow he managed to cling to his perch. if he fell he
was dead, and he had to live. For a little while more, at least. There was something he had to do.
The top of the rock was too small to stand on safely, as weak as he was, so he crouched and waved his
fleshless arms. "Ship," he screamed into the wind. "Ship, here, here!" From up here, he could see her
more clearly; the lean striped hull, the bronze figurehead, the billowing sail. There was a name painted on
her hull, but Davos had never learned to read. "Ship," he called again, "help me, HELP ME!"
A crewman on her forecastle saw him and pointed. He watched as other sailors moved to the gunwale
to gape at him. A short while later the galley's sail came down, her oars slid out, and she swept around
toward his refuge. She was too big to approach the rock closely, but thirty yards away she launched a
small boat. Davos clung to his rock and watched it creep toward him. Four men were rowing, while a
fifth sat in the prow. "You," the fifth man called out when they were only a few feet from his island, "you
up on the rock. Who are you?"
A smuggler who rose above himself, thought Davos, a fool who loved his king too much, and forgot his
gods. His throat was parched, and he had forgotten how to talk. The words felt strange on his tongue
and sounded stranger in his ears. "I was in the battle. I was ... a captain, a ... a knight, I was a knight."
"Aye, ser," the man said, "and serving which king?"
The galley might be Joffrey's, he realized suddenly. If he spoke the
wrong name now, she would abandon him to his fate. But no, her hull was striped. She was Lysene, she
was Salladhor Saan's. The Mother sent her here, the Mother in her mercy. She had a task for him.
Stannis lives, he knew then. I have a king still. And sons, I have other sons, and a wife loyal and loving.
How could he have forgotten? The Mother was merciful indeed.
"Stannis," he shouted back at the Lyseni. "Gods be good, I serve King Stannis."
"Aye," said the man in the boat, "and so do we."
Chapter 6
Sansa
The invitation seemed innocent enough, but every time Sansa read it her tummy tightened into a knot.
She's to be queen now, she's beautiful and rich and everyone loves her, why would she want to sup with
a traitor's daughter~ It could be curiosity, she supposed; perhaps Margaery Tyrell wanted to get the
measure of the rival she'd displaced. Does she resent me, I wonder? Does she think I bear her ill Will ...


Sansa had watched from the castle walls as Margaery Tyrell and her escort made their way up Aegon's
High Hill. Joffrey had met his new bride-to-be at the King's Gate to welcome her to the city, and they
rode side by side through cheering crowds, Joff glittering in gilded armor and the Tyrell girl splendid in
green with a cloak of autumn flowers blowing from her shoulders. She was sixteen, brown-haired and
brown-eyed, slender and beautiful. The people called out her name as she passed, held up their children
for her blessing, and scattered flowers under the hooves of her horse. Her mother and grandmother
followed close behind, riding in a tall wheelhouse whose sides were carved into the shape of a hundred
twining roses, every one gilded and shining. The smallfolk cheered them as well.
The same smallfolk who pulled me from my horse and would have killed me, if not for the Hound. Sansa
had done nothing to make the commons hate her, no more than Margaery Tyrell had done to win their
love. Does she want me to love her too? She studied the invitation, which looked to be written in
Margaery's own hand. Does she want my blessing? Sansa wondered if Joffrey knew of this supper. For
all she knew, it might
be his doing. That thought made her fearful. If Joff was behind the invitation, he would have some cruel
jape planned to shame her in the older girl's eyes. Would he command his Kingsguard to strip her naked
once again? The last time he had done that his uncle Tyrion had stopped him, but the Imp could not save
her now.
No one can save me but my Florian. Ser Dontos had promised he would help her escape, but not until
the night of Joffrey's wedding. The plans had been well laid, her dear devoted knight-turned-fool assured
her; there was nothing to do until then but endure, and count the days.
And sup with my replacement ...
Perhaps she was doing Margaery Tyrell an injustice. Perhaps the invitation was no more than a simple
kindness, an act of courtesy. It might be just a supper. But this was the Red Keep, this was King's
Landing, this was the court of King Joffrey Baratheon, the First of His Name, and if there was one thing
that Sansa Stark had learned here, it was mistrust.
Even so, she must accept. She was nothing now, the discarded daughter of a traitor and disgraced sister
of a rebel lord. She could scarcely refuse Joffrey's queen-to-be.
I wish the Hound were here. The night of the battle, Sandor Clegane had come to her chambers to take
her from the city, but Sansa had refused. Sometimes she lay awake at night, wondering if she'd been
wise. She had his stained white cloak hidden in a cedar chest beneath her summer silks. She could not
say why she'd kept it. The Hound had turned craven, she heard it said; at the height of the battle, he got
so drunk the Imp had to take his men. But Sansa understood. She knew the secret of his burned face. It
was only the fire he feared. That night, the wildfire had set the river itself ablaze, and filled the very air
with green flame. Even in the castle, Sansa had been afraid. Outside ... she could scarcely imagine it.
Sighing, she got out quill and ink, and wrote Margaery Tyrell a gracious note of acceptance.
When the appointed night arrived, another of the Kingsguard came for her, a man as different from
Sandor Clegane as ... well, as a)qower from a dog. The sight of Ser Loras Tyrell standing on her
threshold made Sansa's heart beat a little faster. This was the first time she had been so close to him since
he had returned to King's Landing, leading the vanguard of his father's host. For a moment she did not
know what to say. "Ser Loras," she finally managed, "you ... you look so lovely."
He gave her a puzzled smile. "My lady is too kind. And beautiful besides. My sister awaits you eagerly."


"I have so looked forward to our supper."
"As has Margaery, and my lady grandmother as well." He took her arm and led her toward the steps.
"Your grandmother?" Sansa was finding it hard to walk and talk and think all at the same time, with Ser
Loras touching her arm. She could feel the warmth of his hand through the silk.
"Lady Olenna. She is to sup with you as well."
"Oh," said Sansa. I am talking to him, and he's touching me, he's holding my arm and touching me. "The
Queen of Thorns, she's called. Isn't that right?"
"It is." Ser Loras laughed. He has the warmest laugh, she thought as he went on, "You'd best not use that
name in her presence, though, or you're like to get pricked."
Sansa reddened. Any fool would have realized that no woman would be happy about being called "the
Queen of Thorns." Maybe I truly am as stupid as Cersei Lannister says. Desperately she tried to think of
something clever and charming to say to him, but her wits had deserted her. She almost told him how
beautiful he was, until she remembered that she'd already done that.
He was beautiful, though. He seemed taller than he'd been when she'd first met him, but still so lithe and
graceful, and Sansa had never seen another boy with such wonderful eyes. He's no boy, though, he's a
man grown, a knight of the Kingsguard. She thought he looked even finer in white than in the greens and
golds of House Tyrell. The only spot of color on him now was the brooch that clasped his cloak; the rose
of Highgarden wrought in soft yellow gold, nestled in a bed of delicate green jade leaves.
Ser Balon Swann held the door of Maegor's for them to pass. He was all in white as well, though he did
not wear it half so well as Ser Loras. Beyond the spiked moat, two dozen men were taking their practice
with sword and shield. With the castle so crowded, the outer ward had been given over to guests to raise
their tents and pavilions, leaving only the smaller inner yards for training. One of the Redwyne twins was
being driven backward by Ser Tallad, with the eyes on his shield. Chunky Ser Kennos of Kayce, who
chuffed and puffed every time he raised his longsword, seemed to be holding his own against Osney
Kettleblack, but Osney's brother Ser Osfryd was savagely punishing the frog-faced squire Morros Slynt.
Blunted swords or no, Slynt would have a rich crop of bruises by the morrow. It made Sansa wince Just
to watch. They have scarcely finished burying the dead from the last battle, and already they are
practicing for the next one.
On the edge of the yard, a lone knight with a pair of golden roses on his shield was holding off three
foes. Even as they watched, he caught one of them alongside the head, knocking him senseless. "Is that
your brother?" Sansa asked.
"It is, my lady," said Ser Loras. "Garlan often trains against three men,
or even four. In battle it is seldom one against one, he says, so he likes to be prepared."
"He must be very brave."
"He is a great knight," Ser Loras replied. "A better sword than me, in truth, though I'm the better lance."
"I remember," said Sansa. "You ride wonderfully, ser."


"My lady is gracious to say so. When has she seen me ride?"
"At the Hand's tourney, don't you remember? You rode a white courser, and your armor was a hundred
different kinds of flowers. You gave me a rose. A red rose. You threw white roses to the other girls that
day." It made her flush to speak of it. "You said no victory was half as beautiful as me."
Ser Loras gave her a modest smile. "I spoke only a simple truth, that any man with eyes could see."
He doesn't remember, Sansa realized, startled. He is only being kind to me, he doesn't remember me or
the rose or any of it. She had been so certain that it meant something, that it meant everything. A red
rose, not a white. "It was after you unhorsed Ser Robar Royce," she said, desperately.
He took his hand from her arm. "I slew Robar at Storm's End, my lady." It was not a boast; he sounded
sad.
Him, and another of King Renly's Rainbow Guard as well, yes. Sansa had heard the women talking of it
round the well, but for a moment she'd forgotten. "That was when Lord Renly was killed, wasn't it? How
terrible for your poor sister."
"For Margaery?" His voice was tight. "To be sure. She was at Bitterbridge, though. She did not see."
"Even so, when she heard..."
Ser Loras brushed the hilt of his sword lightly with his hand. Its grip was white leather, its pommel a rose
in alabaster. "Renly is dead. Robar as well. What use to speak of them?"
The sharpness in his tone took her aback. "I ... my lord, I ... I did not mean to give offense, ser."
"Nor could you, Lady Sansa," Ser Loras replied, but all the warmth had gone from his voice. Nor did he
take her arm again.
They ascended the serpentine steps in a deepening silence.
Oh, why did I have to mention Ser Robar? Sansa thought. I've ruined everything. He is angry with me
now She tried to think of something she might say to make amends, but all the words that came to her
were lame and weak. Be quiet, or you will only make it worse, she told herself.
Lord Mace Tyrell and his entourage had been housed behind the royal sept, in the long slate-roofed
keep that had been called the Maidenvault since King Baelor the Blessed had confined his sisters therein,
so the sight
of them might not tempt him into carnal thoughts. Outside its tall carved doors stood two guards in gilded
halffielms and green cloaks edged in gold satin, the golden rose of Highgarden sewn on their breasts.
Both were seven-footers, wide of shoulder and narrow of waist, magnificently muscled. When Sansa got
close enough to see their faces, she could not tell one from the other. They had the same strong jaws, the
same deep blue eyes, the same thick red mustaches. "Who are they?" she asked Ser Loras, her discomfit
forgotten for a moment.
"My grandmother's personal guard," he told her. "Their mother named them Erryk and Arryk, but
Grandmother can't tell them apart, so she calls them Left and Right.,,


Left and Right opened the doors, and Margaery Tyrell herself emerged and swept down the short flight
of steps to greet them. "Lady Sansa," she called, "I'm so pleased you came. Be welcome."
Sansa knelt at the feet of her future queen. "You do me great honor, Your Grace."
"Won't you call me Margaery? Please, rise. Loras, help the Lady Sansa to her feet. Might I call you
Sansa?"
"If it please you." Ser Loras helped her up.
Margaery dismissed him with a sisterly kiss, and took Sansa by the hand. "Come, my grandmother
awaits, and she is not the most patient of ladies."
A fire was crackling in the hearth, and sweet-swelling rushes had been scattered on the floor. Around
the long trestle table a dozen women were seated.
Sansa recognized only Lord Tyrell's tall, dignified wife, Lady Alerie, whose long silvery braid was bound
with jeweled rings. Margaery performed the other introductions. There were three Tyrell cousins, Megga
and Alla and Elinor, all close to Sansa's age. Buxom Lady Janna was Lord Tyrell's sister, and wed to one
of the green-apple Fossoways; dainty, bright-eyed Lady Leonette was a Fossoway as well, and wed to
Ser Garlan. Septa Nysterica had a homely pox-scarred face but seemed jolly. Pale, elegant Lady
Graceford was with child, and Lady Bulwer was a child, no more than eight. And "Merry" was what she
was to call boisterous plump Meredyth Crane, but most definitely not Lady Merryweather, a sultry
black-eyed Myrish beauty.
Last of all, Margaery brought her before the wizened white-haired doll of a woman at the head of the
table. "I am honored to present my grandmother the Lady Olenna, widow to the late Luthor Tyrell, Lord
of Highgarden, whose memory is a comfort to us all."
The old woman smelled of rosewater. Why, she's just the littlest bit of a thing. There was nothing the
least bit thorny about her. "Kiss me, child," Lady Olenna said, tugging at Sansa's wrist with a soft spotted
hand. "It is so kind of you to sup with me and my foolish flock of hens." Dutifully, Sansa kissed the old
woman on the cheek. "It is kind of you to have me, my lady."
"I knew your grandfather, Lord Rickard, though not well."
"He died before I was born."
"I am aware of that, child. It's said that your Tully grandfather is dying too. Lord Hoster, surely they told
you? An old man, though not so old as me. Still, night falls for all of us in the end, and too soon for some.
You would know that more than most, poor child. You've had your share of grief, I know. We are sorry
for your losses."
Sansa glanced at Margaery. "I was saddened when I heard of Lord Renly's death, Your Grace. He was
very gallant."
"You are kind to say so," answered Margaery.
Her grandmother snorted. "Gallant, yes, and charming, and very clean. He knew how to dress and he


knew how to smile and he knew how to bathe, and somehow he got the notion that this made him fit to
be king. The Baratheons have always had some queer notions, to be sure. It comes from their Targaryen
blood, I should think." She sniffed. "They tried to marry me to a Targaryen once, but I soon put an end to
that."
"Renly was brave and gentle, Grandmother," said Margaery. "Father liked him as well, and so did
Loras."
"Loras is young," Lady Olenna said crisply, "and very good at knocking men off horses with a stick.
That does not make him wise. As to your father, would that Id been born a peasant woman with a big
wooden spoon, I might have been able to beat some sense into his fat head."
"Mother," Lady Alerie scolded.
"Hush, Alerie, don't take that tone with me. And don't call me Mother. If I'd given birth to you, I'm sure
I'd remember. I'm only to blame for your husband, the lord oaf of Highgarden."
"Grandmother," Margaery said, "mind your words, or what will Sansa think of us? "
"She might think we have some wits about us. One of us, at any rate." The old woman turned back to
Sansa. "It's treason, I warned them, Robert has two sons, and Renly has an older brother, how can he
possibly have any claim to that ugly iron chair? Tut-tut, says my son, don't you want your sweetling to be
queen? You Starks were kings once, the Arryns and the Lannisters as well, and even the Baratheons
through the female line, but the Tyrells were no more than stewards until Aegon the Dragon came along
and cooked the rightful King of the Reach on the Field of Fire. If truth be told, even our claim to
Highgarden is a bit dodgy, just as those dreadful Florents are always whining. 'What does it matter?' you
ask, and of course it doesn't, except to oafs like my son. The thought that one day he may see his
grandson with his arse on the iron Throne makes
Mace puff up like ... now, what do you call it? Margaery, you're clever, be a dear and tell your poor old
half-daft grandmother the name of that queer fish from the Summer Isles that puffs up to ten times its own
size when you poke it."
"They call them puff fish, Grandmother."
"Of course they do. Summer Islanders have no imagination. My son ought to take the puff fish for his
sigil, if truth be told. He could put a crown on it, the way the Baratheons do their stag, mayhap that
would make him happy. We should have stayed well out of all this bloody foolishness if you ask me, but
once the cow's been milked there's no squirting the cream back up her udder. After Lord Puff Fish put
that crown on Renly's head, we were into the pudding up to our knees, so here we are to see things
through. And what do you say to that, Sansa?"
Sansa's mouth opened and closed. She felt very like a puff fish herself. "The Tyrells can trace their
descent back to Garth Greenhand," was the best she could manage at short notice.
The Queen of Thorns snorted. "So can the Florents, the Rowans, the oakhearts, and half the other noble
houses of the south. Garth liked to plant his seed in fertile ground, they say. I shouldn't wonder that more
than his hands were green."
"Sansa," Lady Alerie broke in, "you must be very hungry. Shall we have a bite of boar together, and
some lemon cakes?"


"Lemon cakes are my favorite," Sansa admitted.
"So we have been told," declared Lady Olenna, who obviously had no intention of being hushed. "That
Varys creature seemed to think we should be grateful for the information. I've never been quite sure what
the point of a eunuch is, if truth be told. It seems to me they're only men with the useful bits cut off.
Alerie, will you have them bring the food, or do you mean to starve me to death? Here, Sansa, sit here
next to me, I'm much less boring than these others. I hope that you're fond of fools."
Sansa smoothed down her skirts and sat. "I think ... fools, my lady? You mean ... the sort in motley?"
"Feathers, in this case. What did you imagine I was speaking of? My son? Or these lovely ladies? No,
don't blush, with your hair it makes you look like a pomegranate. All men are fools, if truth be told, but
the ones in motley are more amusing than ones with crowns. Margaery, child, summon Butterbumps, let
us see if we can't make Lady Sansa smile. The rest of you be seated, do I have to tell you everything?
Sansa must think that my granddaughter is attended by a flock of sheep."
Butterbumps arrived before the food, dressed in a jester's suit of green and yellow feathers with a floppy
coxcomb. An immense round fat man, as big as three Moon Boys, he came cartwheeling into the hall,
vaulted
onto the table, and laid a gigantic egg right in front of Sansa. "Break it, my lady," he commanded. When
she did, a dozen yellow chicks escaped and began running in all directions. "Catch them!" Butterbumps
exclaimed. Little Lady Bulwer snagged one and handed it to him, whereby he tilted back his head,
popped it into his huge rubbery mouth, and seemed to swallow it whole. When he belched, tiny yellow
feathers flew out his nose. Lady Bulwer began to wail in distress, but her tears turned into a sudden
squeal of delight when the chick came squirming out of the sleeve of her gown and ran down her arm.
As the servants brought out a broth of leeks and mushrooms, Butterbumps began to juggle and Lady
Olenna pushed herself forward to rest her elbows on the table. "Do you know my son, Sansa? Lord Puff
Fish of Highgarden?"
"A great lord," Sansa answered politely.
"A great oaf," said the Queen of Thorns. "His father was an oaf as well. My husband, the late Lord
Luthor. Oh, I loved him well enough, don't mistake me. A kind man, and not unskilled in the
bedchamber, but an appalling oaf all the same. He managed to ride off a cliff whilst hawking. They say he
was looking up at the sky and paying no mind to where his horse was taking him.
"And now my oaf son is doing the same, only he's riding a lion instead of a palfrey. It is easy to mount a
lion and not so easy to get off, I warned him, but he only chuckles. Should you ever have a son, Sansa,
beat him frequently so he learns to mind you. I only had the one boy and I hardly beat him at all, so now
he pays more heed to Butterbumps than he does to me. A lion is not a lap cat, I told him, and he gives
me a 'tut-tutMother.' There is entirely too much tut-tutting in this realm, if you ask me. All these kings
would do a deal better if they would put down their swords and listen to their mothers."
Sansa realized that her mouth was open again. She filled it with a spoon of broth while Lady Alerie and
the other women were giggling at the spectacle of Butterbumps bouncing oranges off his head, his
elbows, and his ample rump.
"I want you to tell me the truth about this royal boy," said Lady Olenna abruptly. "This Joffrey."


Sansa's fingers tightened round her spoon. The truth? I can't. Don't ask it, please, I can't. "I... I ... I..."
"You, yes. Who would know better? The lad seems kingly enough, I'll grant you. A bit full of himself, but
that would be his Lannister blood. We have heard some troubling tales, however. Is there any truth to
them? Has this boy mistreated you?"
Sansa glanced about nervously. Butterbumps popped a whole orange into his mouth, chewed and
swallowed, slapped his cheek, and blew seeds
out of his nose. The women giggled and laughed. Servants were coming and going, and the Maidenvault
echoed to the clatter of spoons and plates. One of the chicks hopped back onto the table and ran
through Lady Graceford's broth. No one seemed to be paying them any mind, but even so, she was
frightened.
Lady Olenna was growing impatient. "Why are you gaping at Butterbumps? I asked a question, I expect
an answer. Have the Lannisters stolen your tongue, child?"
Ser Dontos had warned her to speak freely only in the godswood. "Joff ... King Joffrey, he's ... His
Grace is very fair and handsome, and ... and as brave as a lion."
"Yes, all the Lannisters are lions, and when a Tyrell breaks wind it smells just like a rose," the old
woman snapped. "But how kind is he? How clever? Has he a good heart, a gentle hand? Is he chivalrous
as befits a king? Will he cherish Margaery and treat her tenderly, protect her honor as he would his
own?"
"He will," Sansa lied. "He is very ... very comely."
"You said that. You know, child, some say that you are as big a fool as Butterbumps here, and I am
starting to believe them. Comely? I have taught my Margaery what comely is worth, I hope. Somewhat
less than a mummer's fart. Aerion Brightfire was comely enough, but a monster all the same. The question
is, what is Joffrey?" She reached to snag a passing servant. "I am not fond of leeks. Take this broth
away, and bring me some cheese."
"The cheese will be served after the cakes, my lady."
"The cheese will be served when I want it served, and I want it served now." The old woman turned
back to Sansa. "Are you frightened, child? No need for that, we're only women here. Tell me the truth,
no harm will come to you."
"My father always told the truth." Sansa spoke quietly, but even so, it was hard to get the words out.
"Lord Eddard, yes, he had that reputation, but they named him traitor and took his head off even so."
The old woman's eyes bore into her, sharp and bright as the points of swords.
"Joffrey," Sansa said. "Joffrey did that. He promised me he would be merciful, and cut my father's head
off. He said that was mercy, and he took me up on the walls and made me look at it. The head. He
wanted me to weep, but..." She stopped abruptly, and covered her mouth. I've said too much, oh gods
be good, they'll know, theyll hear, someone M11 tell on me.
"Go on." It was Margaery who urged. Joffrey's own queen-to-be. Sansa (lid not know how much she


had heard.
"I can't." What if she tells him, what if she tells? He'll kill me for
certain then, or give me to Ser Ilyn. "I never meant ... my father was a traitor, my brother as well, I have
the traitor's blood, please, don't make me say more."
"Calm yourself, child," the Queen of Thorns commanded.
"She's terrified, Grandmother, just look at her."
The old woman called to Butterbumps. "Fool! Give us a song. A long one, I should think. 'The Bear and
the Maiden Fair' will do nicely."
"It will!" the huge jester replied. "It will do nicely indeed! Shall I sing it standing on my head, my lady?"
"Will that make it sound better?"
"No."
"Stand on your feet, then. We wouldn't want your hat to fall off. As I recall, you never wash your hair."
"As my lady commands." Butterbumps bowed low, let loose of an enormous belch, then straightened,
threw out his belly, and bellowed. "A bear there was, a bear, a BEAR! All black and brown, and
covered with hair..."
Lady Olenna squirmed forward. "Even when I was a girl younger than you, it was well known that in the
Red Keep the very walls have ears. Well, they will be the better for a song, and meanwhile we girls shall
speak freely."
"But," Sansa said, "Varys ... he knows, he always . . .
"Sing louder!" the Queen of Thorns shouted at Butterbumps. "These old ears are almost deaf, you know.
Are you whispering at me, you fat fool? I don't pay you for whispers. Sing!"
". . . THE BEAR!" thundered Butterbumps, his great deep voice echoing off the rafters. "OH, COME,
THEY SAID, OH COME TO THE FAIR! THE FAIR? SAID HE, BUT I'M A BEAR! ALL BLACK
AND BROWN, AND COVERED WITH HAIR!"
The wrinkled old lady smiled. "At Highgarden we have many spiders amongst the flowers. So long as
they keep to themselves we let them spin their little webs, but if they get underfoot we step on them." She
patted Sansa on the back of the hand. "Now, child, the truth. What sort of man is this Joffrey, who calls
himself Baratheon but looks so very Lannister? "
"AND DOWN THE ROAD FROM HERE TO THERE. FROM HERE! TO THERE! THREE
BOYS, A GOAT, AND A DANCING BEAR!"
Sansa felt as though her heart had lodged in her throat. The Queen of Thorns was so close she could
smell the old woman's sour breath. Her gaunt thin fingers were pinching her wrist. To her other side,
Margaery was listening as well. A shiver went through her. "A monster," she whispered, so tremulously
she could scarcely hear her own voice. "Joffrey is a monster. He lied about the butcher's boy and made


Father kill my
wolf. When I displease him, he has the Kingsguard beat me. He's evil and cruel, my lady, it's so. And the
queen as well."
Lady Olenna Tyrell and her granddaughter exchanged a look. ",Ah" said the old woman, "that's a pity."
Oh, gods, thought Sansa, horrified. If Margaery won't marry him, Joff will know that I'm to blame.
"Please," she blurted, "don't stop the wedding. . . "
"Have no fear, Lord Puff Fish is determined that Margaery shall be queen. And the word of a Tyrell is
worth more than all the gold in Casterly Rock. At least it was in my day. Even so, we thank you for the
truth, child."
". . . DANCED AND SP UN, ALL THE WA Y TO THE FAIR! THE FAIR! THE FAIR!"
Butterbumps hopped and roared and stomped his feet.
"Sansa, would you like to visit Highgarden?" When Margaery Tyrell smiled, she looked very like her
brother Loras. "All the autumn flowers are in bloom just now, and there are groves and fountains, shady
courtyards, marble colonnades. My lord father always keeps singers at court, sweeter ones than Butters
here, and pipers and fiddlers and harpers as well. We have the best horses, and pleasure boats to sail
along the Mander. Do you hawk, Sansa?"
"A little," she admitted.
"OH, SWEET SHE WAS, AND PURE, AND FAIR! THE MAID WITH HONEY IN HER HAIR!"
"You will love Highgarden as I do, I know it." Margaery brushed back a loose strand of Sansa's hair.
"Once you see it, you'll never want to leave. And perhaps you won't have to."
"HER HAIR! HER HAIR! THE MAID WITH HONEY IN HER HAIR!"
"Shush, child," the Queen of Thorns said sharply. "Sansa hasn't even told us that she would like to come
for a visit."
"Oh, but I would," Sansa said. Highgarden sounded like the place she had always dreamed of, like the
beautiful magical court she had once hoped to find at King's Landing.
"... SMELLED THE SCENT ON THE SUMMER AIR. THE BEAR! THE BEAR! ALL BLACK
AND BROWN AND COVERED WITH HAIR."
"But the queen," Sansa went on, "she won't let me go..."
"She will. Without Highgarden, the Lannisters have no hope of keeping Joffrey on his throne. If my son
the lord oaf asks, she will have no choice but to grant his request."
"Will he?" asked Sansa. "Will he ask?"
Lady Olenna frowned. "I see no need to give him a choice. Of course, he has no hint of our true
purpose."


"HE SMELLED THE SCENT ON THE SUMMER AIR!"
Sansa wrinkled her brow. "Our true purpose, my lady?"
"HE SNIFFED AND ROARED AND SMELLED IT THERE! HONEY ON THE SUMMER AIR!"
"To see you safely wed, child," the old woman said, as Butterbumps bellowed out the old, old song, "to
my grandson."
Wed to Ser Loras, oh ... Sansa's breath caught in her throat. She remembered Ser Loras in his sparkling
sapphire armor, tossing her a rose. Ser Loras in white silk, so pure, innocent, beautiful. The dimples at
the comer of his mouth when he smiled. The sweetness of his laugh, the warmth of his hand. She could
only imagine what it would be like to pull up his tunic and caress the smooth skin underneath, to stand on
her toes and kiss him, to run her fingers through those thick brown curls and drown in his deep brown
eyes. A flush crept up her neck.
"OH, IMA MAID, AND I'M PURE AND FAIR! I'LL NEVER DANCE WITH A HAIRY BEAR! A
BEAR! A BEAR! I'LL NEVER DANCE WITH A HAIRY BEAR!"
"Would you like that, Sansa?" asked Margaery. "I've never had a sister, only brothers. Oh, please say
yes, please say that you will consent to marry my brother."
The words came tumbling out of her. "Yes. I will. I would like that more than anything. To wed Ser
Loras, to love him..."
"Loras?" Lady Olenna sounded annoyed. "Don't be foolish, child. Kingsguard never wed. Didn't they
teach you anything in Winterfell? We were speaking of my grandson Willas. He is a bit old for you, to be
sure, but a dear boy for all that. Not the least bit oaflsh, and heir to Highgarden besides."
Sansa felt dizzy; one instant her head was full of dreams of Loras, and the next they had all been
snatched away. Willas? Willas? "1," she said stupidly. Courtesy is a lady's armor. You must not offend
them, be careful what you say. "I do not know Ser Willas. I have never had the pleasure, my lady. Is he
... is he as great a knight as his brothers?"
"... LIFTED HER HIGH INTO THE AIR! THE BEAR! THE BEAR!"
"No," Margaery said. "He has never taken vows."
Her grandmother frowned. "Tell the girl the truth. The poor lad is crippled, and that's the way of it."
"He was hurt as a squire, riding in his first tourney," Margaery confided. "His horse fell and crushed his
leg."
"That snake of a Domishman was to blame, that Oberyn Martell. And his maester as well."
"I CALLED FOR A KNIGHT, BUT YOU'RE A BEAR! A BEAR! A BEAR! ALL BLACK AND
BROWN AND COVERED WITH HAIR!"
"Willas has a bad leg but a good heart," said Margaery. "He used to read to me when I was a little girl,
and draw me pictures of the stars. You will love him as much as we do, Sansa."


"SHE KICKED AND WAILED, THE MAID SO FAIR, BUT HE LICKED THE HONEY FROM
HER HAIR. HER HAIR! HER HAIR! HE LICKED THE HONEY FROM HER HAIR!"
"When might I meet him?" asked Sansa, hesitantly.
"Soon," promised Margaery. "When you come to Highgarden, after Joffrey and I are wed. My
grandmother will take you."
"I will," said the old woman, patting Sansa's hand and smiling a soft wrinkly smile. "I will indeed."
"THEN SHE SIGHED AND SQUEALED AND KICKED THE AIR! MY BEAR! SHE SANG.
MYBEAR SO FAIR! AND OFF THEY WENT, FROM HERE TO THERE, THE BEAR, THE
BEAR, AND THE MAIDEN FAIR." Butterbumps roared the last line, leapt into the air, and came
down on both feet with a crash that shook the wine cups on the table. The women laughed and clapped.
"I thought that dreadful song would never end," said the Queen of Thorns. "But look, here comes my
cheese."
Chapter 7
JON
The world was grey darkness, smelling of pine and moss and cold. Pale mists rose from the black earth
as the riders threaded their way through the scatter of stones and scraggly trees, down toward the
welcoming fires strewn like jewels across the floor of the river valley below. There were more fires than
Jon Snow could count, hundreds of fires, thousands, a second river of flickery lights along the banks of
the icy white Milkwater. The fingers of his sword hand opened and closed.
They descended the ridge without banners or trumpets, the quiet broken only by the distant murmur of
the river, the clop of hooves, and the clacking of Rattleshirt's bone armor. Somewhere above an eagle
soared on great blue-grey wings, while below came men and dogs and horses and one white direwolf.
A stone bounced down the slope, disturbed by a passing hoof, and Jon saw Ghost turn his head at the
sudden sound. He had followed the riders at a distance all day, as was his custom, but when the moon
rose over the soldier pines he'd come bounding up, red eyes aglow. Rattleshirt's dogs greeted him with a
chorus of snarls and growls and wild barking, as ever, but the direwolf paid them no mind. Six days ago,
the largest hound had attacked him from behind as the wildlings camped for the night, but Ghost had
turned and lunged, sending the dog fleeing with a bloody haunch. The rest of the pack maintained a
healthy distance after that.
Jon Snow's garron whickered softly, but a touch and a soft word soon quieted the animal. Would that
his own fears could be calmed so easily. He was all in black, the black of the Night's Watch, but the
enemy rode
before and behind. Wildlings, and I am with them. Ygritte wore the cloak of Qhorin Halfhand. Lenyl had
his hauberk, the big spearwife Ragwyle his gloves, one of the bowmen his boots. Qhorin's helm had been
won by the short homely man called Longspear Ryk, but it fit poorly on his narrow head, so he'd given


that to Ygritte as well. And Rattleshirt had Qhorin's bones in his bag, along with the bloody head of
Ebben, who set out with Jon to scout the Skirling Pass. Dead, all dead but me, and I am dead to the
world.
Ygritte rode just behind him. In front was Longspear Ryk. The Lord of Bones had made the two of
them his guards. "If the crow flies, I'll boil your bones as well," he warned them when they had set out,
smiling through the crooked teeth of the giant's skull he wore for a helm.
Ygritte hooted at him. "You want to guard him? If you want us to do it, leave us be and we'll do it."
These are a ftee folk indeed, Jon saw. Rattleshirt might lead them, but none of them were shy in talking
back to him.
The wildling leader fixed him with an unfriendly stare. "Might be you fooled these others, crow, but don't
think you'll be fooling Mance. He'll take one look a' you and know you're false. And when he does, I'll
make a cloak o'your wolf there, and open your soft boy's belly and sew a weasel up inside."
Jon's sword hand opened and closed, flexing the burned fingers beneath the glove, but Longspear Ryk
only laughed. "And where would you find a weasel in the snow?"
That first night, after a long day ahorse, they made camp in a shallow stone bowl atop a nameless
mountain, huddling close to the fire while the snow began to fall. Jon watched the flakes melt as they
drifted over the flames. Despite his layers of wool and fur and leather, he'd felt cold to the bone. Ygritte
sat beside him after she had eaten, her hood pulled up and her hands tucked into her sleeves for warmth.
"When Mance hears how you did for Halfhand, he'll take you quick enough," she told him.
"Take me for what?"
The girl laughed scornfully. "For one o' us. D'ya think you're the first crow ever flew down off the Wall?
In your hearts you all want to fly free."
"And when I'm free," he said slowly, "will I be free to go?"
"Sure you will." She had a warm smile, despite her crooked teeth. "And we'll be free to kill you. It's
dangerous being free, but most come to like the taste o' it." She put her gloved hand on his leg, just
above the knee. "You'll see."
I will, thought Jon. I will see, and hear, and learn, and when I have I will carry the word back to the
Wall. The wildlings had taken him
for an oathbreaker, but in his heart he was still a man of the Night's Watch, doing the last duty that
Qhorin Halfhand had laid on him. Before I killed him.
At the bottom of the slope they came upon a little stream flowing down from the foothills to join the
Milkwater. it looked all stones and glass, though they could hear the sound of water running beneath the
frozen surface. Rattleshirt led them across, shattering the thin crust of ice.
Mance Rayder's outriders closed in as they emerged. Jon took their measure with a glance: eight riders,
men and women both, clad in fur and boiled leather, with here and there a helm or bit of mail. They were
armed with spears and fire-hardened lances, all but their leader, a fleshy blond man with watery eyes
who bore a great curved scythe of sharpened steel. The Weeper, he knew at once. The black brothers


told tales of this one. Like Rattleshirt and Harma Dogshead and Alfyn Crowkiller, he was a known
raider.
"The Lord o' Bones," the Weeper said when he saw them. He eyed Jon and his wolf. "Who's this, then?"
"A crow come over," said Rattleshirt, who preferred to be called the Lord of Bones, for the clattering
armor he wore. "He was afraid I'd take his bones as well as Halfhand's." He shook his sack of trophies
at the other wildlings.
"He slew Qhorin Halfhand," said Longspear Ryk. "Him and that wolf o' his."
"And did for Orell too," said Rattleshirt.
"The lad's a warg, or close enough," put in Ragwyle, the big spearwife. "His wolf took a piece o'
Halfhand's leg."
The Weeper's red rheumy eyes gave Jon another look. "Aye? Well, he has a wolfish cast to him, now as
I look close. Bring him to Mance, might be he'll keep him." He wheeled his horse around and galloped
off, his riders hard behind him.
The wind was blowing wet and heavy as they crossed the valley of the Milkwater and rode singlefile
through the river camp. Ghost kept close to Jon, but the scent of him went before them like a herald, and
soon there were wildling dogs all around them, growling and barking. Lenyl screamed at them to be
quiet, but they paid him no heed. "They don't much care for that beast o' yours," Longspear Ryk said to
Jon.
"They're dogs and he's a wolf," said Jon. "They know he's not their kind." No more than I am yours. But
he had his duty to be mindful of, the task Qhorin Halfhand had laid upon him as they shared that final fire
- to play the part of tumcloak, and find whatever it was that the wildlings had been seeking in the bleak
cold wilderness of the Frostfangs.
"Some power," Qhorin had named it to the Old Bear, but he had died before learning what it was, or
whether Mance Rayder had found it with his digging.
There were cookfires all along the river, amongst wayns and carts and sleds. Many of the wildlings had
thrown up tents, of hide and skin and felted wool. Others sheltered behind rocks in crude lean-tos, or
slept beneath their wagons. At one fire Jon saw a man hardening the points of long wooden spears and
tossing them in a pile. Elsewhere two bearded youths in boiled leather were sparring with staffs, leaping
at each other over the flames, grunting each time one landed a blow. A dozen women sat nearby in a
circle, fletching arrows.
Arrows for my brothers, Jon thought. Arrows for my father's folk, for the people of Winterfell and
Deepwood Motte and the Last Hearth. Arrows for the north.
But not all he saw was warlike. He saw women dancing as well, and heard a baby crying, and a little
boy ran in front of his garron, all bundled up in fur and breathless from play. Sheep and goats wandered
freely, while oxen plodded along the riverbank in search of grass. The smell of roast mutton drifted from
one cookflre, and at another he saw a boar turning on a wooden spit.
In an open space surrounded by tall green soldier pines, Rattleshirt dismounted. "We'll make camp
here," he told Lenyl and Ragwyle and the others. "Feed the horses, then the dogs, then yourself. Ygritte,


Longspear, bring the crow so Mance can have his look. We'll gut him after."
They walked the rest of the way, past more cookflres and more tents, with Ghost following at their
heels. Jon had never seen so many wildlings. He wondered if anyone ever had. The camp goes on
forever, he reflected, but it's more a hundred camps than one, and each more vulnerable than the last.
Stretched out over long leagues, the wildlings had no defenses to speak of, no pits nor sharpened stakes,
only small groups of outriders patrolling their perimeters. Each group or clan or village had simply
stopped where they wanted, as soon as they saw others stopping or found a likely spot. The free folk. If
his brothers were to catch them in such disarray, many of them would pay for that freedom with their
life's blood. They had numbers, but the Night's Watch had discipline, and in battle discipline beats
numbers nine times of every ten, his father had once told him.
There was no doubting which tent was the king's. It was thrice the size of the next largest he'd seen, and
he could hear music drifting from within. Like many of the lesser tents it was made of sewn hides with the
fur still on, but Mance Rayder's hides were the shaggy white pelts of snow bears. The peaked roof was
crowned with a huge set of antlers
from one of the giant elks that had once roamed freely throughout the Seven Kingdoms, in the times of
the First Men.
Here at least they found defenders; two guards at the flap of the tent, leaning on tall spears with round
leather shields strapped to their arms. When they caught sight of Ghost, one of them lowered his
spearpoint and said, "That beast stays here."
"Ghost, stay," ion commanded. The direwolf sat.
"Longspear, watch the beast." Rattleshirt yanked open the tent and gestured Jon and Ygritte inside.
The tent was hot and smoky. Baskets of burning peat stood in all four comers, filling the air with a dim
reddish light. More skins carpeted the ground. Jon felt utterly alone as he stood there in his blacks,
awaiting the pleasure of the tumeloak who called himself King-beyond-the-Wall. When his eyes had
adjusted to the smoky red gloom, he saw six people, none of whom paid him any mind. A dark young
man and a pretty blonde woman were sharing a hom of mead. A pregnant woman stood over a brazier
cooking a brace of hens, while a grey-haired man in a tattered cloak of black and red sat crosslegged on
a pillow, playing a lute and singing:
The Dornishman's wife was as fair as the sun, and her kisses were warmer than spring.
But the Dornishman's blade was made of black steel, and its kiss was a terrible thing.
Jon knew the song, though it was strange to hear it here, in a shaggy hide tent beyond the Wall, ten
thousand leagues from the red mountains and warm winds of Dome.
Rattleshirt took off his yellowed helm as he waited for the song to end. Beneath his bone-and-leather
armor he was a small man, and the face under the giant's skull was ordinary, with a knobby chin, thin
mustache, and sallow, pinched cheeks. His eyes were close-set, one eyebrow creeping all the way
across his forehead, dark hair thinning back from a sharp widow's peak.
The Dornishman's wife would sing as she bathed, in a voice that was sweet as a peach,
But the Dornishman's blade had a song of its own, and a bite sharp and cold as a leech.


Beside the brazier, a short but immensely broad man sat on a stool, eating a hen off a skewer. Hot
grease was running down his chin and into his snow-white beard, but he smiled happily all the same.
Thick
gold bands graven with runes bound his massive arms, and he wore a heavy shirt of black ringmail that
could only have come from a dead ranger. A few feet away, a taller, leaner man in a leather shirt sewn
with bronze scales stood frowning over a map, a two-handed greatsword slung across his back in a
leather sheath. He was straight as a spear, all long wiry muscle, clean-shaved, bald, with a strong straight
nose and deepset grey eyes. He might even have been comely if he'd had ears, but he had lost both along
the way, whether to frostbite or some enemy's knife Jon could not tell. Their lack made the man's head
seem narrow and pointed.
Both the white-bearded man and the bald one were warriors, that was plain to Jon at a glance. These
two are more dangerous than Rattleshirt by far. He wondered which was Mance Rayder.
As he lay on the ground with the darkness around, and the taste of his blood on his tongue,
His brothers knelt by him and prayed him a prayer, and he smiled and he laughed and he sung,
"Brothers, oh brothers, my days here are done, the Dornishman's taken my life,
But what does it matter, for all men must die, and I've tasted the Dornishman's wife!"
As the last strains of "The Dornishman's Wife" faded, the bald earless man glanced up from his map and
scowled ferociously at Rattleshirt and Ygritte, with Jon between them. "What's this?" he said. "A crow?"
"The black bastard what gutted Orell," said Rattleshirt, "and a bloody warg as well."
"You were to kill them all."
"This one come over," explained Ygritte. "He slew Qhorin Halfhand with his own hand."
"This boy?" The earless man was angered by the news. "The Halfhand should have been mine. Do you
have a name, crow?"
"Jon Snow, Your Grace." He wondered whether he was expected to bend the knee as well.
"Your Grace?" The earless man looked at the big white-bearded one. "You see. He takes me for a
king."
The bearded man laughed so hard he sprayed bits of chicken everywhere. He rubbed the grease from
his mouth with the back of a huge hand. "A blind boy, must be. Who ever heard of a king without ears?
Why, his crown would fall straight down to his neck! Har!" He grinned at Jon, wiping his fingers clean on
his breeches. "Close your beak, crow. Spin yourself around, might be you'd find who you're looking for."
Jon turned.
The singer rose to his feet. "I'm Mance Rayder," he said as he put aside the lute. "And you are Ned
Stark's bastard, the Snow of Winterfell. "


Stunned, Jon stood speechless for a moment, before he recovered enough to say, "How ... how could
you know..."
"That's a tale for later," said Mance Rayder. "How did you like the song, lad? "
"Well enough. Id heard it before."
"But what does it matter, for all men must die," the King-beyond-the-Wall said lightly, "and I've tasted
the Dornishman's wife. Tell me, does my Lord of Bones speak truly? Did you slay my old friend the
Halffiand?"
"I did." Though it was his doing more than mine.
"The Shadow Tower will never again seem as fearsome," the king said with sadness in his voice. "Qhorin
was my enemy. But also my brother, once. So ... shall I thank you for killing him, Jon Snow? Or curse
you?" He gave Jon a mocking smile.
The King-beyond-the-Wall looked nothing like a king, nor even much a wildling. He was of middling
height, slender, sharp-faced, with shrewd brown eyes and long brown hair that had gone mostly to grey.
There was no crown on his head, no gold rings on his arms, no jewels at his throat, not even a gleam of
silver. He wore wool and leather, and his only garment of note was his ragged black wool cloak, its long
tears patched with faded red silk.
"You ought to thank me for killing your enemy," Jon said finally, "and curse me for killing your friend."
"Har!" boomed the white-bearded man. "Well answered!"
"Agreed." Mance Rayder beckoned Jon closer. "If you would join us, you'd best know us. The man you
took for me is Styr, Magnar of Therm. Magnar means 'lord' in the Old Tongue." The earless man stared
at Jon coldly as Mance turned to the white-bearded one. "Our ferocious chicken-eater here is my loyal
Tormund. The woman - "
Tormund rose to his feet. "Hold. You gave Styr his style, give me mine."
Mance Rayder laughed. "As you wish. Jon Snow, before you stands Tormund Giantsbane, Tall-talker,
Horn-blower, and Breaker of lee. And here also Tormund Thunderfist, Husband to Bears, the
Mead-king of Ruddy Hall, Speaker to Gods and Father of Hosts."
"That sounds more like me," said Tormund. "Well met, Jon Snow. I am fond o' wargs, as it happens,
though not o' Starks."
"The good woman at the brazier," Mance Rayder went on, "is Dalla." The pregnant woman smiled shyly.
"Treat her like you would any queen, she is carrying my child." He turned to the last two. "This beauty is
her sister Val. Young Jarl beside her is her latest pet."
"I am no man's pet," said Jarl, dark and fierce.
"And Val's no man," white-bearded Tormund snorted. "You ought to have noticed that by now, lad."
"So there you have us, Jon Snow," said Mance Rayder. "The Kingbeyond-the-Wall and his court, such
as it is. And now some words from you, I think. Where did you come from?"


"Winterfell," he said, "by way of Castle Black."
"And what brings you up the Milkwater, so far from the fires of home?" He did not wait for Jon's
answer, but looked at once to Rattleshirt. "How many were they?"
"Five. Three's dead and the boy's here. T'other went up a mountainside where no horse could follow."
Rayder's eyes met Jon's again. "Was it only the five of you? or are more of your brothers skulking
about?"
"We were four and the Halfhand. Qhorin was worth twenty common men."
The King-beyond-the-Wall smiled at that. "Some thought so. Still ... a boy from Castle Black with
rangers from the Shadow Tower? How did that come to be?"
Jon had his lie all ready. "The Lord Commander sent me to the Halfhand for seasoning, so he took me
on his ranging."
Styr the Magnar frowned at that. "Ranging, you call it ... why would crows come ranging up the Skirling
Pass?"
"The villages were deserted," Jon said, truthfully. "It was as if all the free folk had vanished."
"Vanished, aye," said Mance Rayder. "And not just the free folk. Who told you where we were, Jon
Snow?"
Tormund snorted. "It were Craster, or I'm a blushing maid. I told you, Mance, that creature needs to be
shorter by a head."
The king gave the older man an irritated look. "Tormund, some day try thinking before you speak. I
know it was Craster. I asked Jon to see if he would tell it true."
"Har." Tormund spat. "Well, I stepped in that!" He grinned at Jon. "See, lad, that's why he's king and I'm
not. I can outdrink, outfight, and outsing him, and my member's thrice the size o' his, but Mance has
cunning. He was raised a crow, you know, and the crow's a tricksy bird."
"I would speak with the lad alone, my Lord of Bones," Mance Rayder said to Rattleshirt. "Leave us, all
of you."
"What, me as well?" said Tormund.
"No, you especially," said Mance.
"I eat in no hall where I'm not welcome." Tormund got to his feet. "Me and the hens are leaving." He
snatched another chicken off the
brazier, shoved it into a pocket sewn in the lining of his cloak, said "Har," and left licking his fingers. The
others followed him out, all but the woman Dalla.
"Sit, if you like," Rayder said when they were gone. "Are you hungry? Tormund left us two birds at


least."
"I would be pleased to eat, Your Grace. And thank you."
"Your Grace?" The king smiled. "That's not a style one often hears from the lips of free folk. I'm Mance
to most, The Mance to some. Will you take a horn of mead?"
"Gladly," said Jon.
The king poured himself as Dalla cut the well-crisped hens apart and brought them each a half. Jon
peeled off his gloves and ate with his fingers, sucking every morsel of meat off the bones.
"Tormund spoke truly," said Mance Rayder as he ripped apart a loaf of bread. "The black crow is a
tricksy bird, that's so ... but I was a crow when you were no bigger than the babe in Dalla's belly, Jon
Snow. So take care not to play tricksy with me."
"As you say, Your - Mance."
The king laughed. "Your Mance! Why not? I promised you a tale before, of how I knew you. Have you
puzzled it out yet?"
Jon shook his head. "Did Rattleshirt send word ahead?"
"By wing? We have no trained ravens. No, I knew your face. I've seen it before. Twice."
it made no sense at first, but as Jon turned it over in his mind, dawn broke. "When you were a brother of
the Watch. . . "
"Very good! Yes, that was the first time. You were just a boy, and I was all in black, one of a dozen
riding escort to old Lord Commander Qorgyle when he came down to see your father at Winterfell. I
was walking the wall around the yard when I came on you and your brother Robb. It had snowed the
night before, and the two of you had built a great mountain above the gate and were waiting for someone
likely to pass underneath."
"I remember," said Jon with a startled laugh. A young black brother on the wallwalk, yes ... "You swore
not to tell."
"And kept my vow. That one, at least."
"We dumped the snow on Fat Tom. He was Father's slowest guardsman." Tom had chased them
around the yard afterward, until all three were red as autumn apples. "But you said you saw me twice.
When was the other time?"
"When King Robert came to Winterfell to make your father Hand," the King-beyond-the-Wall said
lightly.
Jon's eyes widened in disbelief. "That can't be so."
"It was. When your father learned the king was coming, he sent word
to his brother Benjen on the Wall, so he might come down for the feast. There is more commerce


between the black brothers and the free folk than you know, and soon enough word came to my ears as
well. it was too choice a chance to resist. Your uncle did not know me by sight, so I had no fear from
that quarter, and I did not think your father was like to remember a young crow he'd met briefly years
before. I wanted to see this Robert with my own eyes, king to king, and get the measure of your uncle
Benjen as well. He was First Ranger by then, and the bane of all my people. So I saddled my fleetest
horse, and rode."
"But," Jon objected, "the Wall. . ."
"The Wall can stop an army, but not a man alone. I took a lute and a bag of silver, scaled the ice near
Long Barrow, walked a few leagues south of the New Gift, and bought a horse. All in all I made much
better time than Robert, who was traveling with a ponderous great wheelhouse to keep his queen in
comfort. A day south of Winterfell I came up on him and fell in with his company. Freeriders and hedge
knights are always attaching themselves to royal processions, in hopes of finding service with the king,
and my lute gained me easy acceptance." He laughed. "I know every bawdy song that's ever been made,
north or south of the Wall. So there you are. The night your father feasted Robert, I sat in the back of his
hall on a bench with the other freeriders, listening to Orland of Oldtown play the high harp and sing of
dead kings beneath the sea. I betook of your lord father's meat and mead, had a look at Kingslayer and
Imp ... and made passing note of Lord Eddard's children and the wolf pups that ran at their heels."
"Bael the Bard," said Jon, remembering the tale that Ygritte had told him in the Frostfangs, the night he'd
almost killed her.
"Would that I were. I will not deny that Bael's exploit inspired mine own ... but I did not steal either of
your sisters that I recall. Bael wrote his own songs, and lived them. I only sing the songs that better men
have made. More mead?"
"No," said Jon. "if you had been discovered ... taken. . .
"Your father would have had my head off." The king gave a shrug. "Though once I had eaten at his
board I was protected by guest right. The laws of hospitality are as old as the First Men, and sacred as a
heart tree." He gestured at the board between them, the broken bread and chicken bones. "Here you are
the guest, and safe from harm at my hands ... this night, at least. So tell me truly, Jon Snow. Are you a
craven who turned your cloak from fear, or is there another reason that brings you to my tent?"
Guest right or no, Jon Snow knew he walked on rotten ice here. One false step and he might plunge
through, into water cold enough to stop his heart. Weigh every word before you speak it, he told himself.
He took
a long draught of mead to buy time for his answer. When he set the horn aside he said, "Tell me why you
turned your cloak, and I'll tell you why I turned mine."
Mance Rayder smiled, as Jon had hoped he would. The king was plainly a man who liked the sound of
his own voice. "You will have heard stories of my desertion, I have no doubt."
"Some say it was for a crown. Some say for a woman. Others that you had the wildling blood."
"The wildling blood is the blood of the First Men, the same blood that flows in the veins of the Starks.
As to a crown, do you see one?"
"I see a woman." He glanced at Dalla.


Mance took her by the hand and pulled her close. "My lady is blameless. I met her on my return from
your father's castle. The Halfhand was carved of old oak, but I am made of flesh, and I have a great
fondness for the charms of women ... which makes me no different from threequarters of the Watch.
There are men still wearing black who have had ten times as many women as this poor king. You must
guess again, Jon Snow."
Jon considered a moment. "The Halfhand said you had a passion for wildling music."
"I did. I do. That's closer to the mark, yes. But not a hit." Mance Rayder rose, unfastened the clasp that
held his cloak, and swept it over the bench. "It was for this."
"A cloak?"
"The black wool cloak of a Sworn Brother of the Night's Watch," said the King-beyond-the-Wall. "One
day on a ranging we brought down a fine big elk. We were skinning it when the smell of blood drew a
shadowcat out of its lair. I drove it off, but not before it shredded my cloak to ribbons. Do you see?
Here, here, and here?" He chuckled. "It shredded my arm and back as well, and I bled worse than the
elk. My brothers feared I might die before they got me back to Maester Mullin at the Shadow Tower, so
they carried me to a wildling village where we knew an old wisewoman did some healing. She was dead,
as it happened, but her daughter saw to me. Cleaned my wounds, sewed me up, and fed me porridge
and potions until I was strong enough to ride again. And she sewed up the rents in my cloak as well, with
some scarlet silk from Asshai that her grandmother had pulled from the wreck of a cog washed up on the
Frozen Shore. It was the greatest treasure she had, and her gift to me." He swept the cloak back over his
shoulders. "But at the Shadow Tower, I was given a new wool cloak from stores, black and black, and
trimmed with black, to go with my black breeches and black boots, my black doublet and black mail.
The new cloak had no frays nor rips nor tears ... and most of all, no red. The men of the Night's Watch
dressed
in black, Ser Denys Mallister reminded me sternly, as if I had forgotten. My old cloak was fit for burning
now, he said.
"I left the next morning ... for a place where a kiss was not a crime, and a man could wear any cloak he
chose." He closed the clasp and sat back down again. "And you, Jon Snow?"
Jon took another swallow of mead. There is only one tale that he might believe. "You say you were at
Winterfell, the night my father feasted King Robert."
"I did say it, for I was."
"Then you saw us all. Prince Joffrey and Prince Tommen, Princess Myrcella, my brothers Robb and
Bran and Rickon, my sisters Arya and Sansa. You saw them walk the center aisle with every eye upon
them and take their seats at the table just below the dais where the king and queen were seated."
"I remember."
"And did you see where I was seated, Mance?" He leaned forward. "Did you see where they put the
bastard?"
Mance Rayder looked at Jon's face for a long moment. "I think we had best find you a new cloak," the
king said, holding out his hand.


Chapter 8
DAENERYS
A cross the still blue water came the slow steady beat of drums and
the soft swish of oars from the galleys. The great cog groaned in
their wake, the heavy lines stretched taut between. Balerion's
sails hung limp, drooping forlorn from the masts. Yet even so, as she
stood upon the forecastle watching her dragons chase each other across
a cloudless blue sky, Daenerys Targaryen was as happy as she could ever
remember being.
Her Dothraki called the sea the poison water, distrusting any liquid that their horses could not drink. On
the day the three ships had lifted anchor at Qarth, you would have thought they were sailing to hell
instead of Pentos. Her brave young bloodriders had stared off at the dwindling coastline with huge white
eyes, each of the three determined to show no fear before the other two, while her handmaids Irri and
Jhiqui clutched the rail desperately and retched over the side at every little swell. The rest of Dany's tiny
khalasar remained below decks, preferring the company of their nervous horses to the terrifying landless
world about the ships. When a sudden squall had enveloped them six days into the voyage, she heard
them through the hatches; the horses kicking and screaming, the riders praying in thin quavery voices
each time Balerion heaved or swayed.
No squall could frighten Dany, though. Daenerys Stormborn, she was called, for she had come howling
into the world on distant Dragonstone as the greatest storm in the memory of Westeros howled outside, a
storm so fierce that it ripped gargoyles from the castle walls and smashed her father's fleet to kindling.
The narrow sea was often stormy, and Dany had crossed it half a hundred times as a girl, running from
one Free City to the next half a step ahead of the Usurper's hired knives. She loved the sea. She liked the
sharp salty smell of the air, and the vastness of horizons bounded only by a vault of azure sky above. It
made her feel small, but free as well. She liked the dolphins that sometimes swam along beside Balerion,
slicing through the waves like silvery spears, and the flying fish they glimpsed now and again. She even
liked the sailors, with all their songs and stories. Once on a voyage to Braavos, as she'd watched the
crew wrestle down a great green sail in a rising gale, she had even thought how fine it would be to be a
sailor. But when she told her brother, Viserys had twisted her hair until she cried. "You are blood of the
dragon," he had screamed at her. "A dragon, not some smelly fish."
He was a fool about that, and so much else, Dany thought. ff he had been wiser and more patient, it
would be him sailing west to take the throne that was his by rights. Viserys had been stupid and vicious,
she had come to realize, yet sometimes she missed him all the same. Not the cruel weak man he had
become by the end, but the brother who had sometimes let her creep into his bed, the boy who told her


tales of the Seven Kingdoms, and talked of how much better their lives would be once he claimed his
crown.
The captain appeared at her elbow. "Would that this Balerion could soar as her namesake did, Your
Grace," he said in bastard Valyrian heavily flavored with accents of Pentos. "Then we should not need to
row, nor tow, nor pray for wind."
"Just so, Captain," she answered with a smile, pleased to have won the man over. Captain Groleo was
an old Pentoshi like his master, Illyrio Mopatis, and he had been nervous as a maiden about carrying
three dragons on his ship. Half a hundred buckets of seawater still hung from the gunwales, in case of
fires. At first Groleo had wanted the dragons caged and Dany had consented to put his fears at ease, but
their misery was so palpable that she soon changed her mind and insisted they be freed.
Even Captain Groleo was glad of that, now. There had been one small fire, easily extinguished; against
that, Balerion suddenly seemed to have far fewer rats than she'd had before, when she sailed under the
name Saduleon. And her crew, once as fearful as they were curious, had begun to take a queer fierce
pride in "their" dragons. Every man of them, from captain to cook's boy, loved to watch the three fly ...
though ~, none so much as Dany.
They are my children, she told herself, and if the maegi spoke truly, they are the only children I am ever
like to have.
Viserion's scales were the color of fresh cream, his horns, wing bones,
and spinal crest a dark gold that flashed bright as metal in the sun. Rhaegal was made of the green of
summer and the bronze of fall. They soared above the ships in wide circles, higher and higher, each trying
to climb above the other.
Dragons always preferred to attack from above, Dany had learned. Should either get between the other
and the sun, he would fold his wings and dive screaming, and they would tumble from the sky locked
together in a tangled scaly ball, jaws snapping and tails lashing. The first time they had done it, she feared
that they meant to kill each other, but it was only sport. No sooner would they splash into the sea than
they would break apart and rise again, shrieking and hissing, the salt water steaming off them as their
wings clawed at the air. Drogon was aloft as well, though not in sight; he would be miles ahead, or miles
behind, hunting.
He was always hungry, her Drogon. Hungry and growing fast. Another year, or perhaps two, and he
may be large enough to ride. Then I shall have no need of ships to cross the great salt sea.
But that time was not yet come. Rhaegal and Viserion were the size of small dogs, Drogon only a little
larger, and any dog would have outweighed them; they were all wings and neck and tail, lighter than they
looked. And so Daenerys Targaryen must rely on wood and wind and canvas to bear her home.
The wood and the canvas had served her well enough so far, but the fickle wind had turned traitor. For
six days and six nights they had been becalmed, and now a seventh day had come, and still no breath of
air to fill their sails. Fortunately, two of the ships that Magister Illyrio had sent after her were trading
galleys, with two hundred oars apiece and crews of strong-armed oarsmen to row them. But the great
cog Balerion was a song of a different key; a ponderous broad-beamed sow of a ship with immense
holds and huge sails, but helpless in a calm. Vhagar and Meraxes had let out lines to tow her, but it made
for painfully slow going. All three ships were crowded, and heavily laden.


"I cannot see Drogon," said Ser Jorah Mormont as he joined her on the forecastle. "Is he lost again?"
"We are the ones who are lost, ser. Drogon has no taste for this wet creeping, no more than I do."
Bolder than the other two, her black dragon had been the first to try his wings above the water, the first
to flutter from ship to ship, the first to lose himself in a passing cloud ... and the first to kill. The flying fish
no sooner broke the surface of the water than they were enveloped in a lance of flame, snatched up, and
swallowed. "How big will he grow?" Dany asked curiously. "Do you know?"
"In the Seven Kingdoms, there are tales of dragons who grew so huge that they could pluck giant
krakens from the seas."
Dany laughed. "That would be a wondrous sight to see."
"It is only a tale, Khaleesi," said her exile knight. "They talk of wise old dragons living a thousand years
as well."
"Well, how long does a dragon live?" She looked up as Viserion swooped low over the ship, his wings
beating slowly and stirring the limp sails.
Ser Jorah shrugged. "A dragon's natural span of days is many times as long as a man's, or so the songs
would have us believe ... but the dragons the Seven Kingdoms knew best were those of House
Targaryen. They were bred for war, and in war they died. It is no easy thing to slay a dragon, but it can
be done."
The squire Whitebeard, standing by the figurehead with one lean hand curled about his tall hardwood
staff, turned toward them and said, "Balerion the Black Dread was two hundred years old when he died
during the reign of jaehaerys the Conciliator. He was so large he could swallow an aurochs whole. A
dragon never stops growing, Your Grace, so long as he has food and freedom." His name was Arstan,
but Strong Belwas had named him Whitebeard for his pale whiskers, and most everyone called him that
now. He was taller than Ser Jorah, though not so muscular; his eyes were a pale blue, his long beard as
white as snow and as flne as silk.
"Freedom?" asked Dany, curious. "What do you mean?"
"In King's Landing, your ancestors raised an immense domed castle for their dragons. The Dragonpit, it
is called. It still stands atop the Hill of Rhaenys, though all in ruins now. That was where the royal dragons
dwelt in days of yore, and a cavernous dwelling it was, with iron doors so wide that thirty knights could
ride through them abreast. Yet even so, it was noted that none of the pit dragons ever reached the size of
their ancestors. The maesters say it was because of the walls around them, and the great dome above
their heads."
"If walls could keep us small, peasants would all be tiny and kings as large as giants," said Ser Jorah.
"I've seen huge men born in hovels, and dwarfs who dwelt in castles."
"Men are men," Whitebeard replied. "Dragons are dragons."
Ser Jorah snorted his disdain. "How profound." The exile knight had no love for the old man, he'd made
that plain from the first. "What do you know of dragons, anyway?"
"Little enough, that's true. Yet I served for a time in King's Landing in the days when King Aerys sat the
Iron Throne, and walked beneath the dragonskulls that looked down from the walls of his throne room."


"Viserys talked of those skulls," said Dany. "The Usurper took them down and hid them away. He could
not bear them looking down on him upon his stolen throne." She beckoned Whitebeard closer. "Did you
ever meet my royal father?" King Aerys II had died before his daughter was born.
"I had that great honor, Your Grace."
"Did you find him good and gentle?"
Whitebeard did his best to hide his feelings, but they were there, plain on his face. "His Grace was ...
often pleasant."
"Often?" Dany smiled. "But not always?"
"He could be very harsh to those he thought his enemies."
"A wise man never makes an enemy of a king," said Dany. "Did you know my brother Rhaegar as well?"
"It was said that no man ever knew Prince Rhaegar, truly. I had the privilege of seeing him in tourney,
though, and often heard him play his harp with its silver strings."
Ser Jorah snorted. "Along with a thousand others at some harvest feast. Next you'll claim you squired
for him."
"I make no such claim, ser. Myles Mooton was Prince Rhaegar's squire, and Richard Lonmouth after
him. When they won their spurs, he knighted them himself, and they remained his close companions.
Young Lord Connington was dear to the prince as well, but his oldest friend was Arthur Dayne."
"The Sword of the Morning!" said Dany, delighted. "Viserys used to talk about his wondrous white
blade. He said Ser Arthur was the only knight in the realm who was our brother's peer."
Whitebeard bowed his head. "It is not my place to question the words of Prince Viserys."
"King," Dany corrected. "He was a king, though he never reigned. Viserys, the Third of His Name. But
what do you mean?" His answer had not been one that she'd expected. "Ser Jorah named Rhaegar the
last dragon once. He had to have been a peerless warrior to be called that, surely? "
"Your Grace," said Whitebeard, "the Prince of Dragonstone was a most puissant warrior, but. . ."
"Go on," she urged. "You may speak freely to me."
"As you command." The old man leaned upon his hardwood staff, his brow furrowed. "A warrior
without peer ... those are fine words, Your Grace, but words win no battles."
"Swords win battles," Ser Jorah said bluntly. "And Prince Rhaegar knew how to use one."
"He did, ser, but ... I have seen a hundred tournaments and more wars than I would wish, and however
strong or fast or skilled a knight may be, there are others who can match him. A man will win one
tourney, and fall quickly in the next. A slick spot in the grass may mean defeat, or what you ate for
supper the night before. A change in the wind may bring the gift of victory." He glanced at Ser Jorah. "Or
a lady's favor knotted round an arm."


Mormont's face darkened. "Be careful what you say, old man."
Arstan had seen Ser Jorah fight at Lannisport, Dany knew, in the tourney Mormont had won with a
lady's favor knotted round his arm. He had won the lady too; Lynesse of House Hightower, his second
wife, highborn and beautiful ... but she had ruined him, and abandoned him, and the memory of her was
bitter to him now. "Be gentle, my knight." She put a hand on Jorah's arm. "Arstan had no wish to give
offense, I'm certain."
"As you say, Khaleesi." Ser Jorah's voice was grudging.
Dany turned back to the squire. "I know little of Rhaegar. Only the tales Viserys told, and he was a little
boy when our brother died. What was he truly like?"
The old man considered a moment. "Able. That above all. Determined, deliberate, dutiful, single-minded.
There is a tale told of him ... but doubtless Ser Jorah knows it as well."
"I would hear it from you."
"As you wish," said Whitebeard. "As a young boy, the Prince of Dragonstone was bookish to a fault. He
was reading so early that men said Queen Rhaella must have swallowed some books and a candle whilst
he was in her womb. Rhaegar took no interest in the play of other children. The maesters were awed by
his wits, but his father's knights would jest sourly that Baelor the Blessed had been born again. Until one
day Prince Rhaegar found something in his scrolls that changed him. No one knows what it might have
been, only that the boy suddenly appeared early one morning in the yard as the knights were donning
their steel. He walked up to Ser Willem Darry, the master-at-arms, and said, 'I will require sword and
armor. It seems I must be a warrior."'
"And he was!" said Dany, delighted.
"He was indeed." Whitebeard bowed. "My pardons, Your Grace. We speak of warriors, and I see that
Strong Belwas has arisen. I must attend him."
Dany glanced aft. The eunuch was climbing through the hold amidships, nimble for all his size. Belwas
was squat but broad, a good fifteen stone of fat and muscle, his great brown gut crisscrossed by faded
white scars. He wore baggy pants, a yellow silk bellyband, and an absurdly tiny leather vest dotted with
iron studs. "Strong Belwas is hungry!" he roared at everyone and no one in particular. "Strong Belwas
will eat now!" Turning, he spied Arstan on the forecastle. "Whitebeard! You will bring food for Strong
Belwas!"
"You may go," Dany told the squire. He bowed again, and moved off to tend the needs of the man he
served.
Ser Jorah watched with a frown on his blunt honest face. Mormont was big and burly, strong of jaw and
thick of shoulder. Not a handsome
man by any means, but as true a friend as Dany had ever known. "You would be wise to take that old
man's words well salted," he told her when Whitebeard was out of earshot.
"A queen must listen to all," she reminded him. "The highborn and the low, the strong and the weak, the
noble and the venal. One voice may speak you false, but in many there is always truth to be found." She


had read that in a book.
"Hear my voice then, Your Grace," the exile said. "This Arstan Whitebeard is playing you false. He is
too old to be a squire, and too well spoken to be serving that oaf of a eunuch."
That does seem queer, Dany had to admit. Strong Belwas was an ex-slave, bred and trained in the
fighting pits of Meereen. Magister Illyrio had sent him to guard her, or so Belwas claimed, and it was true
that she needed guarding. The Usurper on his Iron Throne had offered land and lordship to any man who
killed her. One attempt had been made already, with a cup of poisoned wine. The closer she came to
Westeros, the more likely another attack became. Back in Qarth, the warlock Pyat Pree had sent a
Sorrowful Man after her to avenge the Undying she'd burned in their House of Dust. Warlocks never
forgot a wrong, it was said, and the Sorrowful Men never failed to kill. Most of the Dothraki would be
against her as well. Khal Drogo's kos led khalasars of their own now, and none of them would hesitate to
attack her own little band on sight, to slay and slave her people and drag Dany herself back to Vaes
Dothrak to take her proper place among the withered crones of the dosh khaleen. She hoped that Xaro
Xhoan Daxos was not an enemy, but the Qartheen merchant had coveted her dragons. And there was
Quaithe of the Shadow, that strange woman in the red lacquer mask with all her cryptic counsel. Was she
an enemy too, or only a dangerous friend? Dany could not say.
Ser forah saved me from the poisoner, and Arstan Whitebeard from the manticore. Perhaps Strong
Belwas voll save me from the next. He was huge enough, with arms like small trees and a great curved
arakh so sharp he might have shaved with it, in the unlikely event of hair sprouting on those smooth
brown cheeks. Yet he was childlike as well. As a protector, he leaves much to be desired. Thankfully, I
have Ser forah and my bloodriders. And my dragons, never forget. In time, the dragons would be her
most formidable guardians, just as they had been for Aegon the Conqueror and his sisters three hundred
years ago. just now, though, they brought her more danger than protection. In all the world there were
but three living dragons, and those were hers; they were a wonder, and a terror, and beyond price.
She was pondering her next words when she felt a cool breath on the back of her neck, and a loose
strand of her silver-gold hair stirred against
her brow. Above, the canvas creaked and moved, and suddenly a great cry went up from all over
Balerion. "Wind!" the sailors shouted. "The wind returns, the wind!"
Dany looked up to where the great cog's sails rippled and belled as the lines thrummed and tightened
and sang the sweet song they had missed so for six long days. Captain Groleo rushed aft, shouting
commands. The Pentoshi were scrambling up the masts, those that were not cheering. Even Strong
Belwas let out a great bellow and did a little dance. "The gods are good!" Dany said. "You see, Jorah?
We are on our way once more."
"Yes," he said, "but to what, my queen?"
All day the wind blew, steady from the east at first, and then in wild gusts. The sun set in a blaze of red. I
am still half a world from Westeros, Dany reminded herself, but every hour brings me closer. She tried to
imagine what it would feel like, when she first caught sight of the land she was born to rule. It will be as
fair a shore as I have ever seen, I know it. How could it be otherwise?
But later that night, as Balerion plunged onward through the dark and Dany sat crosslegged on her bunk
in the captain's cabin, feeding her dragons - "Even upon the sea," Groleo had said, so graciously, "queens
take precedence over captains" - a sharp knock came upon the door.


Irri had been sleeping at the foot of her bunk (it was too narrow for three, and tonight was Jhiqui's turn
to share the soft featherbed with her khaleesi), but the handmaid roused at the knock and went to the
door. Dany pulled up a coverlet and tucked it in under her arms. She was naked, and had not expected a
caller at this hour. "Come," she said when she saw Ser Jorah standing without, beneath a swaying lantern.
The exile knight ducked his head as he entered. "Your Grace. I am sorry to disturb your sleep."
"I was not sleeping, ser. Come and watch." She took a chunk of salt pork out of the bowl in her lap and
held it up for her dragons to see. All three of them eyed it hungrily. Rhaegal spread green wings and
stirred the air, and Viserion's neck swayed back and forth like a long pale snake's as he followed the
movement of her hand. "Drogon," Dany said softly, "dracarys." And she tossed the pork in the air.
Drogon moved quicker than a striking cobra. Flame roared from his mouth, orange and scarlet and
black, searing the meat before it began to fall. As his sharp black teeth snapped shut around it, Rhaegal's
head darted close, as if to steal the prize from his brother's jaws, but Drogon swallowed and screamed,
and the smaller green dragon could only hiss in frustration.
"Stop that, Rhaegal," Dany said in annoyance, giving his head a swat. "You had the last one. I'll have no
greedy dragons." She smiled at Ser
Jorah. "I won't need to char their meat over a brazier any longer."
"So I see. Dracarys?"
All three dragons turned their heads at the sound of that word ' and Viserion let loose with a blast of pale
gold flame that made Ser Jorah take a hasty step backward. Dany giggled. "Be careful with that word,
ser, or they're like to singe your beard off. It means 'dragonfire' in High Valyrian. I wanted to choose a
command that no one was like to utter by chance."
Mormont nodded. "Your Grace," he said, "I wonder if I might have a few private words?"
"Of course. Irri, leave us for a bit." She put a hand on Jhiqui's bare shoulder and shook the other
handmaid awake. "You as well, sweetling. Ser Jorah needs to talk to me."
"Yes, Khaleesi." Jhiqui tumbled from the bunk, naked and yawning, her thick black hair tumbled about
her head. She dressed quickly and left with Irri, closing the door behind them.
Dany gave the dragons the rest of the salt pork to squabble over, and patted the bed beside her. "Sit,
goodser, and tell mewhat is troublingyou."
"Three things." Ser Jorah sat. "Strong Belwas. This Arstan Whitebeard. And Illyrio Mopatis, who sent
them."
Again? Dany pulled the coverlet higher and tugged one end over her shoulder. "And why is that?"
"The warlocks in Qarth told you that you would be betrayed three times," the exile knight reminded her,
as Viserion and Rhaegal began to snap and claw at each other.
IlOnce for blood and once for gold and once for love." Dany was not like to forget. "Mirri Maz Duur
was the first."


"Which means two traitors yet remain ... and now these two appear. I find that troubling, yes. Never
forget, Robert offered a lordship to the man who slays you."
Dany leaned forward and yanked Viserion's tail, to pull him off his green brother. Her blanket fell away
from her chest as she moved. She grabbed it hastily and covered herself again. "The Usurper is dead,"
she said.
"But his son rules in his place." Ser Jorah lifted his gaze, and his dark eyes met her own. "A dutiful son
pays his father's debts. Even blood debts."
"This boy Joffrey might want me dead ... if he recalls that I'm alive. What has that to do with Belwas and
Arstan Whitebeard? The old man does not even wear a sword. You've seen that."
"Aye. And I have seen how deftly he handles that staff of his. Recall how he killed that manticore in
Qarth? It might as easily have been your throat he crushed."
"Might have been, but was not," she pointed out. "It was a stinging manticore meant to slay me. He
saved my life."
"Khaleesi, has it occurred to you that Whitebeard and Belwas might have been in league with the
assassin? It might all have been a ploy to win your trust."
Her sudden laughter made Drogon hiss, and sent Viserion flapping to his perch above the porthole. "The
ploy worked well."
The exile knight did not return her smile. "These are Illyrio's ships, Illyrio's captains, Illyrio's sailors ...
and Strong Belwas and Arstan are his men as well, not yours."
"Magister Illyrio has protected me in the past. Strong Belwas says that he wept when he heard my
brother was dead."
"Yes," said Mormont, "but did he weep for Viserys, or for the plans he had made with him?"
"His plans need not change. Magister Illyrio is a friend to House Targaryen, and wealthy ...
"He was not born wealthy. In the world as I have seen it, no man grows rich by kindness. The warlocks
said the second treason would be for gold. What does Illyrio Mopatis love more than gold?"
"His skin." Across the cabin Drogon stirred restlessly, steam rising from his snout. "Mirri Maz Duur
betrayed me. I burned her for it."
"Mirri Maz Duur was in your power. In Pentos, you shall be in Illyrio's power. It is not the same. I know
the magister as well as you. He is a devious man, and clever - "
"I need clever men about me if I am to win the Iron Throne."
Ser Jorah snorted. "That wineseller who tried to poison you was a clever man as well. Clever men hatch
ambitious schemes."
Dany drew her legs up beneath the blanket. "You will protect me. You, and my bloodriders."


"Four men? Khaleesi, you believe you know Illyrio Mopatis, very well. Yet you insist on surrounding
yourself with men you do not know, like this puffed-up eunuch and the world's oldest squire. Take a
lesson from Pyat Free and Xaro Xhoan Daxos."
He means well, Dany reminded herself. He does all he does for love. "It seems to me that a queen who
trusts no one is as foolish as a queen who trusts everyone. Every man I take into my service is a risk, I
understand that, but how am I to win the Seven Kingdoms without such risks? Am I to conquer
Westeros with one exile knight and three Dothraki bloodriders?"
His jaw set stubbornly. "Your path is dangerous, I will not deny that. But if you blindly trust in every liar
and schemer who crosses it, you will end as your brothers did."
His obstinacy made her angry. He treats me like some child. "Strong
Belwas could not scheme his way to breakfast. And what lies has Arstan Whitebeard told me?"
"He is not what he pretends to be. He speaks to you more boldly than any squire would dare."
"He spoke frankly at my command. He knew my brother."
"A great many men knew your brother. Your Grace, in Westeros the Lord Commander of the
Kingsguard sits on the small council, and serves the king with his wits as well as his steel. If I am the first
of your Queensguard, I pray you, hear me out. I have a plan to put to YOU."
"What plan? Tell me."
"Illyrio Mopatis wants you back in Pentos, under his roof. Very well, go to him ... but in your own time,
and not alone. Let us see how loyal and obedient these new subjects of yours truly are. Command
Groleo to change course for Slaver's Bay."
Dany was not certain she liked the sound of that at all. Everything she'd ever heard of the flesh marts in
the great slave cities of Yunkai, Meereen, and Astapor was dire and frightening. "What is there for me in
Slaver's Bay?"
"An army," said Ser Jorah. "If Strong Belwas is so much to your liking you can buy hundreds more like
him out of the fighting pits of Meereen ... but it is Astapor I'd set my sails for. In Astapor you can buy
Unsullied."
"The slaves in the spiked bronze hats?" Dany had seen Unsullied guards in the Free Cities, posted at the
gates of magisters, archons, and dynasts. "Why should I want Unsullied? They don't even ride horses,
and most of them are fat."
"The Unsullied you may have seen in Pentos and Myr were household guards. That's soft service, and
eunuchs tend to plumpness in any case. Food is the only vice allowed them. To judge all Unsullied by a
few old household slaves is like judging all squires by Arstan Whitebeard, Your Grace. Do you know the
tale of the Three Thousand of Qohor?"
"No." The coverlet slipped off Dany's shoulder, and she tugged it back into place.
"It was four hundred years ago or more, when the Dothraki first rode out of the east, sacking and
burning every town and city in their path. The khal who led them was named Temmo. His khalasar was


not so big as Drogo's, but it was big enough. Fifty thousand, at the least. Half of them braided warriors
with bells ringing in their hair.
"The Qohorik knew he was coming. They strengthened their walls, doubled the size of their own guard,
and hired two free companies besides, the Bright Banners and the Second Sons. And almost as an
afterthought, they sent a man to Astapor to buy three thousand Unsullied. It was a
long march back to Qohor, however, and as they approached they saw the smoke and dust and heard
the distant din of battle.
"By the time the Unsullied reached the city the sun had set. Crows and wolves were feasting beneath the
walls on what remained of the Qohorik heavy horse. The Bright Banners and Second Sons had fled, as
sellswords are wont to do in the face of hopeless odds. With dark falling, the Dothraki had retired to
their own camps to drink and dance and feast, but none doubted that they would return on the morrow
to smash the city gates, storm the walls, and rape, loot, and slave as they pleased.
"But when dawn broke and Temmo and his bloodriders led their khalasar out of camp, they found three
thousand Unsullied drawn up before the gates with the Black Goat standard flying over their heads. So
small a force could easily have been flanked, but you know Dothraki. These were men on foot, and men
on foot are fit only to be ridden down.
"The Dothraki charged. The Unsullied locked their shields, lowered their spears, and stood firm. Against
twenty thousand screamers with bells in their hair, they stood firm.
"Eighteen times the Dothraki charged, and broke themselves on those shields and spears like waves on a
rocky shore. Thrice Temmo sent his archers wheeling past and arrows fell like rain upon the Three
Thousand, but the Unsullied merely lifted their shields above their heads until the squall had passed. In the
end only six hundred of them remained ... but more than twelve thousand Dothraki lay dead upon that
field, including Khal Temmo, his bloodriders, his kos, and all his sons. On the morning of the fourth day,
the new khal led the survivors past the city gates in a stately procession. One by one, each man cut off his
braid and threw it down before the feet of the Three Thousand.
"Since that day, the city guard of Qohor has been made up solely of Unsullied, every one of whom
carries a tall spear from which hangs a braid of human hair.
"That is what you will find in Astapor, Your Grace. Put ashore there, and continue on to Pentos
overland. It will take longer, yes ... but when you break bread with Magister Illyrio, you will have a
thousand swords behind you, not just four."
There is wisdom in this, yes, Dany thought, but. . . "How am I to buy a thousand slave soldiers? All I
have of value is the crown the Tourmaline Brotherhood gave me."
"Dragons will be as great a wonder in Astapor as they were in Qarth. it may be that the slavers will
shower you with gifts, as the Qartheen did. If not ... these ships carry more than your Dothraki and their
horses. They took on trade goods at Qarth, I've been through the holds and seen for myself. Bolts of silk
and bales of tiger skin, amber and jade carvings, saffron, myrrh ... slaves are cheap, Your Grace. Tiger
skins are costly."
"Those are Illyrio's tiger skins," she objected.
"And Illyrio is a friend to House Targaryen."


"All the more reason not to steal his goods."
"What use are wealthy friends if they will not put their wealth at your disposal, my queen? If Magister
Illyrio would deny you, he is only Xaro Xhoan Daxos with four chins. And if he is sincere in his devotion
to your cause, he will not begrudge you three shiploads of trade goods. What better use for his tiger skins
than to buy you the beginnings of an army? "
That's true. Dany felt a rising excitement. "There will be dangers on such a long march. . . "
"There are dangers at sea as well. Corsairs and pirates hunt the southern route, and north of Valyria the
Smoking Sea is demon-haunted. The next storm could sink or scatter us, a kraken could pull us under ...
or we might find ourselves becalmed again, and die of thirst as we wait for the wind to rise. A march will
have different dangers, my queen, but none greater."
"What if Captain Groleo refuses to change course, though? And Arstan, Strong Belwas, what will they
do?"
Ser Jorah stood. "Perhaps it's time you found that out."
"Yes," she decided. "I'll do it!" Dany threw back the coverlets and hopped from the bunk. "I'll see the
captain at once, command him to set course for Astapor." She bent over her chest, threw open the lid,
and seized the first garment to hand, a pair of loose sandsilk trousers. "Hand me my medallion belt," she
commanded Jorah as she pulled the sandsilk up over her hips. "And my vest - " she started to say,
turning.
Ser Jorah slid his arms around her.
"Oh," was all Dany had time to say as he pulled her close and pressed his lips down on hers. He smelled
of sweat and salt and leather, and the iron studs on his jerkin dug into her naked breasts as he crushed
her hard against him. One hand held her by the shoulder while the other slid down her spine to the small
of her back, and her mouth opened for his tongue, though she never told it to. His beard is scratchy, she
thought, but his mouth is sweet. The Dothraki wore no beards, only long mustaches, and only Khal
Drogo had ever kissed her before. He should not be doing this. I am his queen, not his woman.
It was a long kiss, though how long Dany could not have said. When it ended, Ser Jorah let go of her,
and she took a quick step backward. "You ... you should not have..."
"I should not have waited so Iong, " he finished for her. "I should have kissed you in Qarth, in Vaes
Tolorru. I should have kissed you in the red waste, every night and every day. You were made to be
kissed, often and well." His eyes were on her breasts.
Dany covered them with her hands, before her nipples could betray her. "I ... that was not fitting. I am
your queen."
"My queen," he said, "and the bravest, sweetest, and most beautiful woman I have ever seen. Daenerys
-
"Your Grace!"
"Your Grace," he conceded, "the dragon has three heads, remember? You have wondered at that, ever


since you heard it from the warlocks in the House of Dust. Well, here's your meaning: Balerion, Meraxes,
and Vhagar, ridden by Aegon, Rhaenys, and Visenya. The three-headed dragon of House Targaryen -
three dragons, and three riders."
"Yes," said Dany, "but my brothers are dead."
"Rhaenys and Visenya were Aegon's wives as well as his sisters. You have no brothers, but you can
take husbands. And I tell you truly, Daenerys, there is no man in all the world who will ever be half so
true to you as me."
Chapter 9
Bran
The ridge slanted sharply from the earth, a long fold of stone and soil shaped like a claw. Trees clung to
its lower slopes, pines and hawthorn and ash, but higher up the ground was bare, the ridgeline stark
against the cloudy sky.
He could feel the high stone calling him. Up he went, loping easy at first, then faster and higher, his strong
legs eating up the incline. Birds burst from the branches overhead as he raced by, clawing and flapping
their way into the sky. He could hear the wind sighing up amongst the leaves, the squirrels chittering to
one another, even the sound a pinecone made as it tumbled to the forest floor. The smells were a song
around him, a song that filled the good green world.
Gravel flew from beneath his paws as he gained the last few feet to stand upon the crest. The sun hung
above the tall pines huge and red, and below him the trees and hills went on and on as far as he could see
or smell. A kite was circling far above, dark against the pink sky.
Prince. The man-sound came into his head suddenly, yet he could feel the rightness of it. Prince of the
green, prince of the wolfswood. He was strong and swift and fierce, and all that lived in the good green
world went in fear of him.
Far below, at the base of the woods, something moved amongst the trees. A flash of grey,
quick-glimpsed and gone again, but it was enough to make his ears prick up. Down there beside a swift
green brook, another form slipped by, running. Wolves, he knew. His little cousins, chasing down some
prey. Now the prince could see more of them, shadows on fleet grey paws. A pack.
He had a pack as well, once. Five they had been, and a sixth who stood aside. Somewhere down inside
him were the sounds the men had given them to tell one from the other, but it was not by their sounds he
knew them. He remembered their scents, his brothers and his sisters. They all had smelled alike, had
smelled of pack, but each was different too.
His angry brother with the hot green eyes was near, the prince felt, though he had not seen him for many
hunts. Yet with every sun that set he grew more distant, and he had been the last. The others were far
scattered, like leaves blown by the wild wind.
Sometimes he could sense them, though, as if they were still with him, only hidden from his sight by a


boulder or a stand of trees. He could not smell them, nor hear their howls by night, yet he felt their
presence at his back ... all but the sister they had lost. His tail drooped when he remembered her. Four
now, not five. Four and one more, the white who has no voice.
These woods belonged to them, the snowy slopes and stony hills, the great green pines and the golden
leaf oaks, the rushing streams and blue lakes fringed with fingers of white frost. But his sister had left the
wilds, to walk in the halls of man-rock where other hunters ruled, and once within those halls it was hard
to find the path back out. The wolf prince remembered.
The wind shifted suddenly.
Deer, and fear, and blood. The scent of prey woke the hunger in him. The prince sniffed the air again,
turning, and then he was off, bounding along the ridgetop with jaws half-parted. The far side of the ridge
was steeper than the one he'd come up, but he flew surefoot over stones and roots and rotting leaves,
down the slope and through the trees, long strides eating up the ground. The scent pulled him onward,
ever faster.
The deer was down and dying when he reached her, ringed by eight of his small grey cousins. The heads
of the pack had begun to feed, the male first and then his female, taking turns tearing flesh from the red
underbelly of their prey. The others waited patiently, all but the tail, who paced in a wary circle a few
strides from the rest, his own tail tucked low. He would eat the last of all, whatever his brothers left him.
The prince was downwind, so they did not sense him until he leapt up upon a fallen log six strides from
where they fed. The tail saw him first, gave a piteous whine, and slunk away. His pack brothers turned at
the sound and bared their teeth, snarling, all but the head male and female.
The direwolf answered the snarls with a low warning growl and showed them his own teeth. He was
bigger than his cousins, twice the size of the scrawny tail, half again as large as the two pack heads. He
leapt down into their midst, and three of them broke, melting away into the brush.
Another came at him, teeth snapping. He met the attack head on, caught the wolf's leg in his jaws when
they met, and flung him aside yelping and limping.
And then there was only the head wolf to face, the great grey male with his bloody muzzle fresh from the
prey's soft belly. There was white on his muzzle as well, to mark him as an old wolf, but when his mouth
opened, red slaver ran from his teeth.
He has no fear, the prince thought, no more than me. It would be a good fight. They went for each other.
Long they fought, rolling together over roots and stones and fallen leaves and the scattered entrails of the
prey, tearing at each other with tooth and claw, breaking apart, circling each round the other, and bolting
in to fight again. The prince was larger, and much the stronger, but his cousin had a pack. The female
prowled around them closely, snuffing and snarling, and would interpose herself whenever her mate
broke off bloodied. From time to time the other wolves would dart in as well, to snap at a leg or an ear
when the prince was turned the other way. One angered him so much that he whirled in a black fury and
tore out the attacker's throat. After that the others kept their distance.
And as the last red light was filtering through green boughs and golden, the old wolf lay down weary in
the dirt, and rolled over to expose his throat and belly. it was submission.
The prince sniffed at him and licked the blood from fur and tom flesh. When the old wolf gave a soft


whimper, the direwolf turned away. He was very hungry now, and the prey was his.
"Hodor."
The sudden sound made him stop and snarl. The wolves regarded him with green and yellow eyes,
bright with the last light of day. None of them had heard it. It was a queer wind that blew only in his ears.
He buried his jaws in the deer's belly and tore off a mouthful of flesh.
"Hodor, hodor."
No, he thought. No, I won't. It was a boy's thought, not a direwolf's. The woods were darkening all
about him, until only the shadows of the trees remained, and the glow of his cousins' eyes. And through
those and behind those eyes, he saw a big man's grinning face, and a stone vault whose walls were
spotted with niter. The rich warm taste of blood faded on his tongue. No, don't, don't, I want to eat, I
want to, I want ...
"Hodor, hodor, hodor, hodor, hodor," Hodor chanted as he shook him softly by the shoulders, back
and forth and back and forth. He was trying to be gentle, he always tried, but Hodor was seven feet tall
and stronger than he knew, and his huge hands rattled Bran's teeth together. "NOP he shouted angrily.
"Hodor, leave off, I'm here, I'm here."
Hodor stopped, looking abashed. "Hodor?"
The woods and wolves were gone. Bran was back again, down in the damp vault of some ancient
watchtower that must have been abandoned thousands of years before. It wasn't much of a tower now.
Even the tumbled stones were so overgrown with moss and ivy that you could hardly see them until you
were right on top of them. "Tumbledown Tower", Bran had named the place; it was Meera who found
the way down into the vault, however.
"You were gone too long." Jojen Reed was thirteen, only four years older than Bran. Jojen wasn't much
bigger either, no more than two inches or maybe three, but he had a solemn way of talking that made him
seem older and wiser than he really was. At Winterfell, Old Nan had dubbed him "little grandfather."
Bran frowned at him. "I wanted to eat."
"Meera will be back soon with supper."
"I'm sick of frogs." Meera was a frogeater from the Neck, so Bran couldn't really blame her for catching
so many frogs, he supposed, but even so ... "I wanted to eat the deer." For a moment he remembered
the taste of it, the blood and the raw rich meat, and his mouth watered. I won the fight for it. I won.
"Did you mark the trees?"
Bran flushed. Jojen was always telling him to do things when he opened his third eye and put on
Summer's skin. To claw the bark of a tree, to catch a rabbit and bring it back in his jaws uneaten, to push
some rocks in a line. Stupid things. "I forgot," he said.
"You always forget."
It was true. He meant to do the things that Jojen asked, but once he was a wolf they never seemed
important. There were always things to see and things to smell, a whole green world to hunt. And he


could run! There was nothing better than running, unless it was running after prey. "I was a prince, Jojen,"
he told the older boy. "I was the prince of the woods."
"You are a prince," Jojen reminded him softly. "You remember, don't you? Tell me who you are."
"You know" Jojen was his friend and his teacher, but sometimes Bran just wanted to hit him.
"I want you to say the words. Tell me who you are."
"Bran," he said sullenly. Bran the Broken. "Brandon Stark." The cripple boy. "The Prince of Winterfell."
Of Winterfell burned and tumbled, its people scattered and slain. The glass gardens were smashed, and
hot water gushed from the cracked walls to steam beneath the sun. How can you be the prince of
someplace you might never see again?
"And who is Summer?" Jojen prompted.
"My direwolf." He smiled. "Prince of the green."
"Bran the boy and Summer the wolf. You are two, then?"
"Two," he sighed, "and one." He hated Jojen when he got stupid like this. At Winterfell he wanted me to
dream my wolf dreams, and now that I know how he's always calling me back.
"Remember that, Bran. Remember yourself, or the wolf will consume you. When you join, it is not
enough to run and hunt and howl in Summer's skin."
It is for me, Bran thought. He liked Summer's skin better than his own. What good is it to be a
skinchanger if you can't wear the skin you like?
"Will you remember? And next time, mark the tree. Any tree, it doesn't matter, so long as you do it."
"I will. I'll remember. I could go back and do it now, if you like. I won't forget this time." But I'll eat my
deer first, and fight with those little wolves some more.
Jojen shook his head. "No. Best stay, and eat. With your own mouth. A warg cannot live on what his
beast consumes."
How would you know? Bran thought resentfully. You've never been a warg, you don't know what it's
like.
Hodor jerked suddenly to his feet, almost hitting his head on the barrelvaulted ceiling. "HODOR!" he
shouted, rushing to the door. Meera pushed it open just before he reached it, and stepped through into
their refuge. "Hodor, hodor," the huge stableboy said, grinning.
Meera Reed was sixteen, a woman grown, but she stood no higher than her brother. All the crannogmen
were small, she told Bran once when he asked why she wasn't taller. Brown-haired, green-eyed, and flat
as a boy, she walked with a supple grace that Bran could only watch and envy. Meera wore a long sharp
dagger, but her favorite way to fight was with a slender three-pronged frog spear in one hand and a
woven net in the other.
"Who's hungry?" she asked, holding up her catch: two small silvery trout and six fat green frogs.


"I am," said Bran. But not for frogs. Back at Winterfell before all the bad things had happened, the
Walders used to say that eating frogs would turn your teeth green and make moss grow under your arms.
He wondered if the Walders were dead. He hadn't seen their corpses at Winterfell ... but there had been
a lot of corpses, and they hadn't looked inside the buildings.
"We'll just have to feed you, then. Will you help me clean the catch, Bran? "
He nodded. It was hard to sulk with Meera. She was much more cheerful than her brother, and always
seemed to know how to make him smile. Nothing ever scared her or made her angry. Well, except lojen,
sometimes ... joien Reed could scare most anyone. He dressed all in green, his eyes were murky as
moss, and he had green dreams. What Jojen dreamed came true. Except he dreamed me dead, and I'm
not. Only he was, in a way.
Jojen sent Hodor out for wood and built them a small fire while Bran and Meera were cleaning the fish
and frogs. They used Meera's helm for a cooking pot, chopping up the catch into little cubes and tossing
in some water and some wild onions Hodor had found to make a froggy stew. It wasn't as good as deer,
but it wasn't bad either, Bran decided as he ate. "Thank you, Meera," he said. "My lady."
"You are most welcome, Your Grace."
"Come the morrow," Jojen announced, "we had best move on."
Bran could see Meera tense. "Have you had a green dream?"
"No," he admitted.
"Why leave, then?" his sister demanded. "Tumbledown Tower's a good place for us. No villages near,
the woods are full of game, there's fish and frogs in the streams and lakes ... and who is ever going to find
us here?"
"This is not the place we are meant to be."
"It is safe, though."
"It seems safe, I know," said Jojen, "but for how long? There was a battle at Winterfell, we saw the
dead. Battles mean wars. If some army should take us unawares..."
"It might be Robb's army," said Bran. "Robb will come back from the south soon, I know he will. He'll
come back with all his banners and chase the ironmen away."
"Your maester said naught of Robb when he lay dying," Jojen reminded him. "Ironmen on the Stony
Shore, he said, and, east, the Bastard of Bolton. Moat Cailin and Deepwood Motte fallen, the heir to
Cerwyn dead, and the castellan of Torrhen's Square. War everywhere, he said, each man against his
neighbor."
"We have plowed this field before," his sister said. "You want to make for the Wall, and your three-eyed
crow. That's well and good, but the Wall is a very long way and Bran has no legs but Hodor. If we were
mounted..."


"If we were eagles we might fly," said Jojen sharply, "but we have no wings, no more than we have
horses."
"There are horses to be had," said Meera. "Even in the deep of the wolfswood there are foresters,
crofters, hunters. Some will have horses."
"And if they do, should we steal them? Are we thieves? The last thing we need is men hunting us."
"We could buy them," she said. "Trade for them."
"Look at us, Meera. A crippled boy with a direwolf, a simpleminded
giant, and two crannogmen a thousand leagues from the Neck. We will be known. And word will
spread. So long as Bran remains dead, he is safe. Alive, he becomes prey for those who want him dead
for good and true." Jojen went to the fire to prod the embers with a stick. "Somewhere to the north, the
three-eyed crow awaits us. Bran has need of a teacher wiser than me."
"How, Jojen?" his sister asked. "How?"
"Afoot," he answered. "A step at a time."
"The road from Greywater to Winterfell. went on forever, and we were mounted then. You want us to
travel a longer road on foot, without even knowing where it ends. Beyond the Wall, you say. I haven't
been there, no more than you, but I know that Beyond the Wall's a big place, Jojen. Are there many
three-eyed crows, or only one? How do we find him?"
"Perhaps he will find us."
Before Meera could find a reply to that, they heard the sound; the distant howl of a wolf, drifting through
the night. "Summer?" asked Jojen, listening.
"No." Bran knew the voice of his direwolf.
"Are you certain?" said the little grandfather.
"Certain." Summer had wandered far afield today, and would not be back till dawn. Maybe lojen
dreams green, but he can't tell a wolf from a direwolf. He wondered why they all listened to Jojen so
much. He was not a prince like Bran, nor big and strong like Hodor, nor as good a hunter as Meera, yet
somehow it was always Jojen telling them what to do. "We should steal horses like Meera wants," Bran
said, "and ride to the Umbers up at Last Hearth." He thought a moment. "Or we could steal a boat and
sail down the White Knife to White Harbor town. That fat Lord Manderly rules there, he was friendly at
the harvest feast. He wanted to build ships. Maybe he built some, and we could sail to Riverrun and bring
Robb home with all his army. Then it wouldn't matter who knew I was alive. Robb wouldn't let anyone
hurt us."
"Hodor!" burped Hodor. "Hodor, hodor."
He was the only one who liked Bran's plan, though. Meera just smiled at him and Jojen frowned. They
never listened to what he wanted, even though Bran was a Stark and a prince besides, and the Reeds of
the Neck were Stark bannermen.


"Hoooodor," said Hodor, swaying. "Hooooooodor, hoooooodor, hoDOR, hoDOR, hoDOR."
Sometimes he liked to do this, just saying his name different ways, over and over and over. Other times,
he would stay so quiet you forgot he was there. There was never any knowing with Hodor. "HODOR,
HODOR, HODOR!" he shouted.
He is not going to stop, Bran realized. "Hodor," he said, "why don't you go outside and train with your
sword?"
The stableboy had forgotten about his sword, but now he remembered. "Hodor!" he burped. He went
for his blade. They had three tomb swords taken from the crypts of Winterfell where Bran and his
brother Rickon had hidden from Theon Greyjoy's ironmen. Bran claimed his uncle Brandon's sword,
Meera the one she found upon the knees of his grandfather Lord Rickard. Hodor's blade was much
older, a huge heavy piece of iron, dull from centuries of neglect and well spotted with rust. He could
swing it for hours at a time. There was a rotted tree near the tumbled stones that he had hacked half to
pieces.
Even when he went outside they could hear him through the walls, bellowing "HODOR!" as he cut and
slashed at his tree. Thankfully the wolfswood was huge, and there was not like to be anyone else around
to hear.
"Jojen, what did you mean about a teacher?" Bran asked. "You're my teacher. I know I never marked
the tree, but I will the next time. My third eye is open like you wanted. . . "
"So wide open that I fear you may fall through it, and live all the rest of your days as a wolf of the
woods."
"I won't, I promise."
"The boy promises. Will the wolf remember? You run with Summer, you hunt with him, kill with him ...
but you bend to his will more than him to yours."
"I just forget," Bran complained. "I'm only nine. I'll be better when I'm older. Even Florian the Fool and
Prince Aemon the Dragonknight weren't great knights when they were nine."
"That is true," said Jojen, "and a wise thing to say, if the days were still growing longer ... but they aren't.
You are a summer child, I know. Tell me the words of House Stark."
"Winter is coming." just saying it made Bran feel cold.
Jojen gave a solemn nod. "I dreamed of a winged wolf bound to earth by chains of stone, and came to
Winterfell to free him. The chains are off you now, yet still you do not fly."
"Then you teach me." Bran still feared the three-eyed crow who haunted his dreams sometimes, pecking
endlessly at the skin between his eyes and telling him to fly. "You're a greenseer."
"No," said Jojen, "only a boy who dreams. The greenseers were more than that. They were wargs as
well, as you are, and the greatest of them could wear the skins of any beast that flies or swims or crawls,
and could look through the eyes of the weirwoods as well, and see the truth that lies beneath the world.
"The gods give many gifts, Bran. My sister is a hunter. It is given to her to run swiftly, and stand so still
she seems to vanish. She has sharp ears, keen eyes, a steady hand with net and spear. She can breathe


mud
and fly through trees. I could not do these things, no more than you could. To me the gods gave the
green dreams, and to you ... you could be more than me, Bran. You are the winged wolf, and there is no
saying how far and high you might fly ... if you had someone to teach you. How can I help you master a
gift I do not understand? We remember the First Men in the Neck, and the children of the forest who
were their friends ... but so much is forgotten, and so much we never knew."
Meera took Bran by the hand. "If we stay here, troubling no one, you'll be safe until the war ends. You
will not learn, though, except what my brother can teach you, and you've heard what he says. If we leave
this place to seek refuge at Last Hearth or beyond the Wall, we risk being taken. You are only a boy, I
know, but you are our prince as well, our lord's son and our king's true heir. We have sworn you our
faith by earth and water, bronze and iron, ice and fire. The risk is yours, Bran, as is the gift. The choice
should be yours too, I think. We are your servants to command." She grinned. "At least in this."
"You mean," Bran said, "you'll do what I say? Truly?"
"Truly, my prince," the girl replied, "so consider well."
Bran tried to think it through, the way his father might have. The Greatjon's uncles Hother Whoresbane
and Mors Crowfood were fierce men, but he thought they would be loyal. And the Karstarks, them too.
Karhold was a strong castle, Father always said. We would be safe with the Umbers or the Karstarks.
Or they could go south to fat Lord Manderly. At Winterfell, he'd laughed a lot, and never seemed to
look at Bran with so much pity as the other lords. Castle Cerwyn was closer than White Harbor, but
Maester Luwin had said that Cley Cerwyn was dead. The Umbers and the Karstarks and the Manderlys
may all be dead as well, he realized. As he would be, if he was caught by the ironmen or the Bastard of
Bolton.
If they stayed here, hidden down beneath Tumbledown Tower, no one would find them. He would stay
alive. And crippled.
Bran realized he was crying. Stupid baby, he thought at himself. No matter where he went, to Karhold
or White Harbor or Greywater Watch, he'd be a cripple when he got there. He balled his hands into fists.
"I want to fly," he told them. "Please. Take me to the crow."
Chapter 10
DAVOS
When he came up on deck, the long point of Driftmark was dwindling behind them while Dragonstone
rose from the sea ahead. A pale grey wisp of smoke blew from the top of the mountain to mark where
the island lay. Dragonmont is restless this morning, Davos thought, or else Melisandre is burning someone
else.
Melisandre had been much in his thoughts as Shayala's Dance made her way across Blackwater Bay
and through the Gullet, tacking against perverse contrary winds. The great fire that burned atop the Sharp


Point watchtower at the end of Massey's Hook reminded him of the ruby she wore at her throat, and
when the world turned red at dawn and sunset the drifting clouds turned the same color as the silks and
satins of her rustling gowns.
She would be waiting on Dragonstone as well, waiting in all her beauty and all her power, with her god
and her shadows and his king. The red priestess had always seemed loyal to Stannis, until now. She has
broken him, as a man breaks a horse. She would ride him to power if she could, and for that she gave
my sons to the fire. I will cut the living heart from her breast and see how it bums. He touched the hilt of
the fine long Lysene dirk that the captain had given him.
The captain had been very kind to him. His name was Khorane Sathmantes, a Lyseni like Salladhor
Saan, whose ship this was. He had the pale blue eyes you often saw on Lys, set in a bony weatherworn
face, but he had spent many years trading in the Seven Kingdoms. When he learned that the man he had
plucked from the sea was the celebrated onion knight, he gave him the use of his own cabin and his own
clothes, and
a pair of new boots that almost fit. He insisted that Davos share his provisions as well, though that turned
out badly. His stomach could not tolerate the snails and lampreys and other rich food Captain Khorane
so relished, and after his first meal at the captain's table he spent the rest of the day with one end or the
other dangling over the rail.
Dragonstone loomed larger with every stroke of the oars. Davos could see the shape of the mountain
now, and on its side the great black citadel with its gargoyles and dragon towers. The bronze figurehead
at the bow of Shayala's Dance sent up wings of salt spray as it cut the waves. He leaned his weight
against the rail, grateful for its support. His ordeal had weakened him. If he stood too long his legs shook,
and sometimes he fell prey to uncontrollable fits of coughing and brought up gobs of bloody phlegm. It is
nothing, he told himself. Surely the gods did not bring me safe through flre and sea only to kill me with a
flux.
As he listened to the pounding of the oarmaster's drum, the thrum of the sail, and the rhythmic swish and
creak of the oars, he thought back to his younger days, when these same sounds woke dread in his heart
on many a misty mom. They heralded the approach of old Ser Tristimun's sea watch, and the sea watch
was death to smugglers when Aerys Targaryen sat the Iron Throne.
But that was another lifetime, he thought. That was before the onion ship, before Storm's End, before
Stannis shortened my fingers. That was before the war or the red comet, before I was a Seaworth or a
knight. I was a different man in those days, before Lord Stannis raised me high.
Captain Khorane had told him of the end of Stannis's hopes, on the night the river burned. The
Lannisters had taken him from the flank, and his fickle bannermen had abandoned him by the hundreds in
the hour of his greatest need. "King Renly's shade was seen as well," the captain said, "slaying right and
left as he led the lion lord's van. It's said his green armor took a ghostly glow from the wildfire, and his
antlers ran with golden flames."
Renly's shade. Davos wondered if his sons would return as shades as well. He had seen too many queer
things on the sea to say that ghosts did not exist. "Did none keep faith?" he asked.
"Some few," the captain said. "The queen's kin, them in chief. We took off many who wore the
fox-and-flowers, though many more were left ashore, with all manner of badges. Lord Florent is the
King's Hand on Dragonstone now."


The mountain grew taller, crowned all in pale smoke. The sail sang, the drum beat, the oars pulled
smoothly, and before very long the mouth of the harbor opened before them. So empty, Davos thought,
remembering how it had been before, with the ships crowding every quay and rocking at anchor off the
breakwater. He could see Salladhor Saan's flagship Valyrian
moored at the quay where Fury and her sisters had once tied up. The ships on either side of her had
striped Lysene hulls as well. In vain he looked for any sign of Lady Marya or Wraith.
They pulled down the sail as they entered the harbor, to dock on oars alone. The captain came to Davos
as they were tying up. "My prince will wish to see you at once."
A fit of coughing seized Davos as he tried to answer. He clutched the rail for support and spat over the
side. "The king," he wheezed. "I must go to the king." For where the king is, I will find Melisandre.
"No one goes to the king," Khorane Sathmantes replied firmly. "Salladhor Saan will tell you. Him first."
Davos was too weak to defy him. He could only nod.
Salladhor Saan was not aboard his Valyrian. They found him at another quay a quarter mile distant,
down in the hold of a big-bellied Pentoshi cog named Bountiful Harvest, counting cargo with two
eunuchs. One held a lantern, the other a wax tablet and stylus. "Thirty-seven, thirtyeight, thirty-nine," the
old rogue was saying when Davos and the captain came down the hatch. Today he wore a wine-colored
tunic and high boots of bleached white leather inlaid with silver scrollwork. Pulling the stopper from a jar,
he sniffed, sneezed, and said, "A coarse grind, and of the second quality, my nose declares. The bill of
lading is saying forty-three jars. Where have the others gotten to, I am wondering? These Pentoshi, do
they think I am not counting?" When he saw Davos he stopped suddenly. "Is it pepper stinging my eyes,
or tears? Is this the knight of the onions who stands before me? No, how can it be, my dear friend Davos
died on the burning river, all agree. Why has he come to haunt me?"
"I am no ghost, Salla."
"What else? My onion knight was never so thin or so pale as you." Salladhor Saan threaded his way
between the jars of spice and bolts of cloth that filled the hold of the merchanter, wrapped Davos in a
fierce embrace, then kissed him once on each cheek and a third time on his forehead. "You are still
warm, ser, and I feel your heart thumpetythumping. Can it be true? The sea that swallowed you has spit
you up again."
Davos was reminded of Patchface, Princess Shireen's lackwit fool. He had gone into the sea as well,
and when he came out he was mad. Am I mad as well? He coughed into a gloved hand and said, "I
swam beneath the chain and washed ashore on a spear of the merling king. I would have died there, if
Shayala's Dance had not come upon me."
Salladhor Saan threw an arm around the captain's shoulders. "This was well done, Khorane. You will be
having a fine reward, I am thinking. Meizo Mahr, be a good eunuch and take my friend Davos to the
owner's cabin.
Fetch him some hot wine with cloves, I am misliking the sound of that cough. Squeeze some lime in it as
well. And bring white cheese and a bowl of those cracked green olives we counted earlier! Davos, I will
join you soon, once I have bespoken our good captain. You will be forgiving me, I know. Do not eat all
the olives, or I must be cross with you!"


Davos let the elder of the two eunuchs escort him to a large and lavishly furnished cabin at the stem of
the ship. The carpets were deep, the windows stained glass, and any of the great leather chairs would
have seated three of Davos quite comfortably. The cheese and olives arrived shortly, and a cup of
steaming hot red wine. He held it between his hands and sipped it gratefully. The warmth felt soothing as
it spread through his chest.
Salladhor Saan appeared not long after. "You must be forgiving me for the wine, my friend. These
Pentoshi would drink their own water if it were purple."
"It will help my chest," said Davos. "Hot wine is better than a compress, my mother used to say."
"You shall be needing compresses as well, I am thinking. Sitting on a spear all this long time, oh my.
How are you finding that excellent chair? He has fat cheeks, does he not?"
"Who?" asked Davos, between sips of hot wine.
"Illyrio Mopatis. A whale with whiskers, I am telling you truly. These chairs were built to his measure,
though he is seldom bestirring himself from Pentos to sit in them. A fat man always sits comfortably, I am
thinking, for he takes his pillow with him wherever he goes."
"How is it you come by a Pentoshi ship?" asked Davos. "Have you gone pirate again, my lord?" He set
his empty cup aside.
"Vile calumny. Who has suffered more from pirates than Salladhor Saan? I ask only what is due me.
Much gold is owed, oh yes, but I am not without reason, so in place of coin I have taken a handsome
parchment, very crisp. It bears the name and seal of Lord Alester Florent, the Hand of the King. I am
made Lord of Blackwater Bay, and no vessel may be crossing my lordly waters without my lordly leave,
no. And when these outlaws are trying to steal past me in the night to avoid my lawful duties and
customs, why, they are no better than smugglers, so I am well within my rights to seize them." The old
pirate laughed. "I cut off no man's fingers, though. What good are bits of fingers? The ships I am taking,
the cargoes, a few ransoms, nothing unreasonable." He gave Davos a sharp look. "You are unwell, my
friend. That cough ... and so thin, I am seeing your bones through your skin. And yet I am not seeing your
little bag of fingerbones. . ."
Old habit made Davos reach for the leather pouch that was no longer there. "I lost it in the river." My
luck.
"The river was terrible," Salladhor Saan said solemnly. "Even from the bay, I was seeing, and
shuddering."
Davos coughed, spat, and coughed again. "I saw Black Betha burning, and Fury as well," he finally
managed, hoarsely. "Did none of our ships escape the fire?" Part of him still hoped.
"Lord Steffon, Ragged Jenna, Swift Sword, Laughing Lord, and some others were upstream of the
pyromancers'pissing, yes. They did not bum, but with the chain raised, neither could they be flying. Some
few were surrendering. Most rowed far up the Blackwater, away from the battling, and then were sunk
by their crews so they would not be falling into Lannister hands. Ragged Jenna and Laughing Lord are
still playing pirate on the river, I have heard, but who can say if it is so?"
"Lady Marya?" Davos asked. "Wraith?"


Salladhor Saan put a hand on Davos's forearm and gave a squeeze. "No. Of them, no. I am sorry, my
friend. They were good men, your Dale and Allard. But this comfort I can give you - your young Devan
was among those we took off at the end. The brave boy never once left the king's side, or so they say."
For a moment he felt almost dizzy, his relief was so palpable. He had been afraid to ask about Devan.
"The Mother is merciful. I must go to him, Salla. I must see him."
"Yes," said Salladhor Saan. "And you will be wanting to sail to Cape Wrath, I know, to see your wife
and your two little ones. You must be having a new ship, I am thinking."
"His Grace will give me a ship," said Davos.
The Lyseni shook his head. "Of ships, His Grace has none, and Salladhor Saan has many. The king's
ships burned up on the river, but not mine. You shall have one, old friend. You will sail for me, yes? You
will dance into Braavos and Myr and Volantis in the black of night, all unseen, and dance out again with
silks and spices. We will be having fat purses, yes."
"You are kind, Salla, but my duty's to my king, not your purse. The war will go on. Stannis is still the
rightful heir by all the laws of the Seven Kingdoms."
"All the laws are not helping when all the ships bum up, I am thinking. And your king, well, you will be
finding him changed, I am fearing. Since the battle, he sees no one, but broods in his Stone Drum. Queen
Selyse keeps court for him with her uncle the Lord Alester, who is naming himself the Hand. The king's
seal she has given to this uncle, to fix to the letters he writes, even to my pretty parchment. But it is a little
kingdom they are ruling, poor and rocky, yes. There is no gold, not even a little bit to pay faithful
Salladhor Saan what is owed him, and only those knights that we took off at the end, and no ships but
my little brave few."
A sudden racking cough bent Davos over. Salladhor Saan moved to help him, but he waved him off,
and after a moment he recovered. "No one?" he wheezed. "What do you mean, he sees no one?" His
voice sounded wet and thick, even in his own ears, and for a moment the cabin swam dizzily around him.
"No one but her," said Salladhor Saan, and Davos did not have to ask who he meant. "My friend, you
tire yourself. It is a bed you are needing, not Salladhor Saan. A bed and many blankets, with a hot
compress for your chest and more wine and cloves."
Davos shook his head. "I will be fine. Tell me, Salla, I must know. No one but Melisandre?"
The Lyseni gave him a long doubtful look, and continued reluctantly. "The guards keep all others away,
even his queen and his little daughter. Servants bring meals that no one eats." He leaned forward and
lowered his voice. "Queer talking I have heard, of hungry fires within the mountain, and how Stannis and
the red woman go down together to watch the flames. There are shafts, they say, and secret stairs down
into the mountain's heart, into hot places where only she may walk unburned. It is enough and more to
give an old man such terrors that sometimes he can scarcely find the strength to eat."
Melisandre. Davos shivered. "The red woman did this to him," he said. "She sent the fire to consume us,
to punish Stannis for setting her aside, to teach him that he could not hope to win without her sorceries."
The Lyseni chose a plump olive from the bowl between them. "You are not the first to be saying this, my
friend. But if I am you, I am not saying it so loudly. Dragonstone crawls with these queen's men, oh yes,
and they have sharp ears and sharper knives." He popped the olive into his mouth.


"I have a knife myself. Captain Khorane made me a gift of it." He pulled out the dirk and laid it on the
table between them. "A knife to cut out Melisandre's heart. If she has one."
Salladhor Saan spit out an olive pit. "Davos, good Davos, you must not be saying such things, even in
jest."
"No jest. I mean to kill her." If she can be killed by mortal weapons. Davos was not certain that she
could. He had seen old Maester Cressen slip poison into her wine, with his own eyes he had seen it, but
when they both drank from the poisoned cup it was the maester who died, not the red priestess. A knife
in the heart, though ... even demons can be killed by cold iron, the singers say.
"These are dangerous talkings, my friend," Salladhor Saan warned him. "I am thinking you are still sick
from the sea. The fever has cooked your wits, yes. Best you are taking to your bed for a long resting,
until you are stronger."
Until my resolve weakens, you mean. Davos got to his feet. He did feel feverish and a little dizzy, but it
did not matter. "You are a treacherous old rogue, Salladhor Saan, but a good friend all the same."
The Lyseni stroked his pointed silver beard. "So with this great friend you will be staying, yes?"
"No, I will be going." He coughed.
"Go? Look at you! You cough, you tremble, you are thin and weak. Where will you be going?"
"To the castle. My bed is there, and my son."
"And the red woman," Salladhor Saan said suspiciously. "She is in the castle also."
"Her too." Davos slid the dirk back into its sheath.
"You are an onion smuggler, what do you know of skulkings and stabbings? And you are ill, you cannot
even hold the dirk. Do you know what will be happening to you, if you are caught? While we were
burning on the river, the queen was burning traitors. Servants of the dark, she named them, poor men,
and the red woman sang as the fires were lit."
Davos was unsurprised. I knew, he thought, I knew before he told me. "She took Lord Sunglass from
the dungeons," he guessed, "and Hubard Rambton's sons."
"Just so, and burned them, as she will bum you. If you kill the red woman, they will burn you for
revenge, and if you fail to kill her, they will bum you for the trying. She will sing and you will scream, and
then you will die. And you have only just come back to life!"
"And this is why," said Davos. "To do this thing. To make an end of Melisandre of Asshai and all her
works. Why else would the sea have spit me out? You know Blackwater Bay as well as I do, Salla. No
sensible captain would ever take his ship through the spears of the merling king and risk ripping out his
bottom. Shayala's Dance should never have come near me."
"A wind," insisted Salladhor Saan loudly, "an ill wind, is all. A wind drove her too far to the south."
"And who sent the wind? Salla, the Mother spoke to me."


The old Lyseni blinked at him. "Your mother is dead. . . "
"The Mother. She blessed me with seven sons, and yet I let them bum her. She spoke to me. We called
the fire, she said. We called the shadows too. I rowed Melisandre into the bowels of Storm's End and
watched her birth a horror." He saw it still in his nightmares, the gaunt black hands pushing against her
thighs as it wriggled free of her swollen womb. "She killed Cressen and Lord Renly and a brave man
named Cormay Penrose, and she killed my sons as well. Now it is time someone killed her."
"Someone," said Salladhor Saan. "Yes, just so, someone. But not you. You are weak as a child, and no
warrior. Stay, I beg you, we will talk
more and you will eat, and perhaps we will sail to Braavos and hire a Faceless Man to do this thing,
yes? But you, no, you must sit and eat."
He is making this much harder, thought Davos wearily, and it was perishingly hard to begin with. "I have
vengeance in my belly, Salla. It leaves no room for food. Let me go now. For our friendship, wish me
luck and let me go."
Salladhor Saan pushed himself to his feet. "You are no true friend, I am thinking. When you are dead,
who will be bringing your ashes and bones back to your lady wife and telling her that she has lost a
husband and four sons? Only sad old Salladhor Saan. But so be it, brave ser knight, go rushing to your
grave. I will gather your bones in a sack and give them to the sons you leave behind, to wear in little bags
around their necks." He waved an angry hand, with rings on every finger. "Go, go, go, go, go."
Davos did not want to leave like this. "Salla - "
"GO. Or stay, better, but if you are going, go."
He went.
His walk up from the Bountiful Harvest to the gates of Dragonstone was long and lonely. The dockside
streets where soldiers and sailors and smallfolk had thronged were empty and deserted. Where once he
had stepped around squealing pigs and naked children, rats scurried. His legs felt like pudding beneath
him, and thrice the coughing racked him so badly that he had to stop and rest. No one came to help him,
nor even peered through a window to see what was the matter. The windows were shuttered, the doors
barred, and more than half the houses displayed some mark of mourning. Thousands sailed up the
Blackwater Rush, and hundreds came back, Davos reflected. My sons did not die alone. May the
Mother have mercy on them all.
When he reached the castle gates, he found them shut as well. Davos pounded on the iron-studded
wood with his fist. When there was no answer, he kicked at it, again and again. Finally a crossbowman
appeared atop the barbican, peering down between two towering gargoyles. "Who goes there? "
He craned his head back and cupped his hands around his mouth. "Ser Davos Seaworth, to see His
Grace."
"Are you drunk? Go away and stop that pounding."
Salladhor Saan had warned him. Davos tried a different tack. "Send for my son, then. Devan, the king's
squire."


The guard frowned. "Who did you say you were?"
"Davos," he shouted. "The onion knight."
The head vanished, to return a moment later. "Be off with you. The onion knight died on the river. His
ship burned."
"His ship burned," Davos agreed, "but he lived, and here he stands. Is jate still captain of the gate?"
"Who?"
"Jate Blackberry. He knows me well enough."
"I never heard of him. Most like he's dead."
"Lord Chyttering, then."
"That one I know. He burned on the Blackwater."
"Hookface Will? Hal the Hog?"
"Dead and dead," the crossbowman said, but his face betrayed a sudden doubt. "You wait there." He
vanished again.
Davos waited. Gone, all gone, he thought dully, remembering how fat Hal's white belly always showed
beneath his grease-stained doublet, the long scar the fish hook had left across Will's face, the way Jate
always doffed his cap at the women, be they five or fifty, highbom or low. Drowned or burned, with my
sons and a thousand others, gone to make a king in hell.
Suddenly the crossbowman was back. "Go round to the sally port and they'll admit you."
Davos did as he was bid. The guards who ushered him inside were strangers to him. They carried
spears, and on their breasts they wore the fox-and-flowers sigil of House Florent. They escorted him not
to the Stone Drum, as he'd expected, but under the arch of the Dragon's Tail and down to Aegon's
Garden. "Wait here," their sergeant told him.
"Does His Grace know that I've returned?" asked Davos.
"Bugger all if I know. Wait, I said." The man left, taking his spearmen with him.
Aegon's Garden had a pleasant piney smell to it, and tall dark trees rose on every side. There were wild
roses as well, and towering thorny hedges, and a boggy spot where cranberries grew.
Why have they brought me here? Davos wondered.
Then he heard a faint ringing of bells, and a child's giggle, and suddenly the fool Patchface popped from
the bushes, shambling along as fast as he could go with the Princess Shireen hot on his heels. "You come
back now," she was shouting after him. "Patches, you come back."
When the fool saw Davos, he jerked to a sudden halt, the bells on his antlered tin helmet going


ting-a-ling, ting-a-ling. Hopping from one foot to the other, he sang, "Fool's blood, king's blood, blood
on the maiden's thigh, but chains for the guests and chains for the bridegroom, aye aye aye." Shireen
almost caught him then, but at the last instant he hopped over a patch of bracken and vanished among the
trees. The princess was right behind him. The sight of them made Davos smile.
He had turned to cough into his gloved hand when another small shape crashed out of the hedge and
bowled right into him, knocking him off his feet.
The boy went down as well, but he was up again almost at once. "What
are you doing here?" he demanded as he brushed himself off. jet-black hair fell to his collar, and his eyes
were a startling blue. "You shouldn't get in my way when I'm running."
"No," Davos agreed. "I shouldn't." Another fit of coughing seized him as he struggled to his knees.
"Are you unwell?" The boy took him by the arm and pulled him to his feet. "Should I summon the
maester?"
Davos shook his head. "A cough. It will pass."
The boy took him at his word. "We were playing monsters and maidens, " he explained. "I was the
monster. It's a childish game but my cousin likes it. Do you have a name?"
"Ser Davos Seaworth."
The boy looked him up and down dubiously. "Are you certain? You don't look very knightly."
"I am the knight of the onions, my lord."
The blue eyes blinked. "The one with the black ship?"
"You know that tale?"
"You brought my uncle Stannis fish to eat before I was born, when Lord Tyrell had him under siege."
The boy drew himself up tall. "I am Edric Storm," he announced. "King Robert's son."
"Of course you are." Davos had known that almost at once. The lad had the prominent ears of a Florent,
but the hair, the eyes, the jaw, the cheekbones, those were all Baratheon.
"Did you know my father?" Edric Storm demanded.
"I saw him many a time while calling on your uncle at court, but we never spoke."
"My father taught me to fight," the boy said proudly. "He came to see me almost every year, and
sometimes we trained together. On my last name day he sent me a warharnmer just like his, only smaller.
They made me leave it at Storm's End, though. Is it true my uncle Stannis cut off your fingers?"
"Only the last joint. I still have fingers, only shorter."
"Show me."


Davos peeled his glove off. The boy studied his hand carefully. "He did not shorten your thumb?"
"No." Davos coughed. "No, he left me that."
"He should not have chopped any of your fingers," the lad decided. "That was ill done."
"I was a smuggler."
"Yes, but you smuggled him fish and onions."
"Lord Stannis knighted me for the onions, and took my fingers for the smuggling." He pulled his glove
back on.
"My father would not have chopped your fingers."
"As you say, my lord." Robert was a different man than Stannis, true enough. The boy is like him. Aye,
and like Renly as well. That thought made him anxious.
The boy was about to say something more when they heard steps. Davos turned. Ser Axell Florent was
coming down the garden path with a dozen guards in quilted jerkins. On their breasts they wore the fiery
heart of the Lord of Light. Queen's men, Davos thought. A cough came on him suddenly.
Ser Axell was short and muscular, with a barrel chest, thick arms, bandy legs, and hair growing from his
ears. The queen's uncle, he had served as castellan of Dragonstone for a decade, and had always treated
Davos courteously, knowing he enjoyed the favor of Lord Stannis. But there was neither courtesy nor
warmth in his tone as he said, "Ser Davos, and undrowned. How can that be?"
"Onions float, ser. Have you come to take me to the king?"
"I have come to take you to the dungeon." Ser Axell waved his men forward. "Seize him, and take his
dirk. He means to use it on our lady."
Chapter 11
JAIME
Jaime was the first to spy the inn. The main building hugged the south shore where the river bent, its long
low wings outstretched along the water as if to embrace travelers sailing downstream. The lower story
was grey stone, the upper whitewashed wood, the roof slate. He could see stables as well, and an arbor
heavy with vines. "No smoke from the chimneys," he pointed out as they approached. "Nor lights in the
windows."
"The inn was still open when last I passed this way," said Ser Cleos Frey. "They brewed a fine ale.
Perhaps there is still some to be had in the cellars."
"There may be people," Brienne said. "Hiding. Or dead."


"Frightened of a few corpses, wench?" Jaime said.
She glared at him. "My name is - "
" - Brienne, yes. Wouldn't you like to sleep in a bed for a night, Brienne? We'd be safer than on the
open river, and it might be prudent to find what's happened here."
She gave no answer, but after a moment she pushed at the tiller to angle the skiff in toward the
weathered wooden dock. Ser Cleos scrambled to take down the sail. When they bumped softly against
the pier, he climbed out to tie them up. Jaime clambered after him, made awkward by his chains.
At the end of the dock, a flaking shingle swung from an iron post, painted with the likeness of a king
upon his knees, his hands pressed together in the gesture of fealty. Jaime took one look and laughed
aloud. "We could not have found a better inn."
"Is this some special place?" the wench asked, suspicious.
Ser Cleos answered. "This is the Inn of the Kneeling Man, my lady. it stands upon the very spot where
the last King in the North knelt before Aegon the Conqueror to offer his submission. That's him on the
sign, I suppose."
"Torrhen had brought his power south after the fall of the two kings on the Field of Fire," said Jaime,
"but when he saw Aegon's dragon and the size of his host, he chose the path of wisdom and bent his
frozen knees." He stopped at the sound of a horse's whinny. "Horses in the stable. One at least." And
one is all I need to put the wench behind me. "Let's see who's home, shall we?" Without waiting for an
answer, Jaime went clinking down the dock, put a shoulder to the door, shoved it open ...
... and found himself eye to eye with a loaded crossbow. Standing behind it was a chunky boy of fifteen.
"Lion, fish, or wolf?" the lad demanded.
"We were hoping for capon." Jaime heard his companions entering behind him. "The crossbow is a
coward's weapon."
"It'll put a bolt through your heart all the same."
"Perhaps. But before you can wind it again my cousin here will spill your entrails on the floor."
"Don't be scaring the lad, now," Ser Cleos said.
"We mean no harm," the wench said. "And we have coin to pay for food and drink." She dug a silver
piece from her pouch.
The boy looked suspiciously at the coin, and then at Jaime's manacles. "Why's this one in irons?"
"Killed some crossbowmen," said Jaime. "Do you have ale?"
"Yes." The boy lowered the crossbow an inch. "Undo your swordbelts and let them fall, and might be
we'll feed you." He edged around to peer through the thick, diamond-shaped windowpanes and see if
any more of them were outside. "That's a Tully sail."
"We come from Riverrun." Brienne undid the clasp on her belt and let it clatter to the floor. Ser Cleos


followed suit.
A sallow man with a pocked doughy face stepped through the cellar door, holding a butcher's heavy
cleaver. "Three, are you? We got horsemeat enough for three, The horse was old and tough, but the
meat's still fresh."
"Is there bread?" asked Brienne.
"Hardbread and stale oatcakes."
Jaime grinned. "Now there's an honest innkeep. They'll all serve you stale bread and stringy meat, but
most don't own up to it so freely."
"I'm no innkeep. I buried him out back, with his women."
"Did you kill them?"
"Would I tell you if I did?" The man spat. "Likely it were wolves' work, or maybe lions, what's the
difference? The wife and I found them dead. The way we see it, the place is ours now."
"Where is this wife of yours?" Ser Cleos asked.
The man gave him a suspicious squint. "And why would you be wanting to know that? She's not here ...
no more'n you three will be, unless I like the taste of your silver."
Brienne tossed the coin to him. He caught it in the air, bit it, and tucked it away.
"She's got more," the boy with the crossbow announced.
"So she does. Boy, go down and find me some onions."
The lad raised the crossbow to his shoulder, gave them one last sullen look, and vanished into the cellar.
"Your son?" Ser Cleos asked.
"Just a boy the wife and me took in. We had two sons, but the lions killed one and the other died of the
flux. The boy lost his mother to the Bloody Mummers. These days, a man needs someone to keep watch
while he sleeps." He waved the cleaver at the tables. "Might as well sit."
The hearth was cold, but Jaime picked the chair nearest the ashes and stretched out his long legs under
the table. The clink of his chains accompanied his every movement. An irritating sound. Before this is
done, I'll wrap these chains around the wench's throat, seehowshe likes them then.
The man who wasn't an innkeep charred three huge horse steaks and fried the onions in bacon grease,
which almost made up for the stale oatcakes. Jaime and Cleos drank ale, Brienne a cup of cider. The
boy kept his distance, perching atop the cider barrel with his crossbow across his knees, cocked and
loaded. The cook drew a tankard of ale and sat with them. "What news from Riverrun?" he asked Ser
Cleos, taking him for their leader.
Ser Cleos glanced at Brienne before answering. "Lord Hoster is failing, but his son holds the fords of the
Red Fork against the Lannisters. There have been battles."


"Battles everywhere. Where are you bound, ser?"
"King's Landing." Ser Cleos wiped grease off his lips.
Their host snorted. "Then you're three fools. Last I heard, King Stannis was outside the city walls. They
say he has a hundred thousand men and a magic sword."
Jaime's hands wrapped around the chain that bound his wrists, and he twisted it taut, wishing for the
strength to snap it in two. Then I'd show Stannis where to sheathe his magic sword.
"I'd stay well clear of that kingsroad, if I were you," the man went on. "it's worse than bad, I hear.
Wolves and lions both, and bands of broken men preying on anyone they can catch."
"Vermin," declared Ser Cleos with contempt. "Such would never dare to trouble armed men."
"Begging your pardon, ser, but I see one armed man, traveling with a woman and a prisoner in chains."
Brienne gave the cook a dark look. The wench does hate being reminded that she's a wench, Jaime
reflected, twisting at the chains again. The links were cold and hard against his flesh, the iron implacable.
The manacles had chafed his wrists raw.
"I mean to follow the Trident to the sea," the wench told their host. "We'll find mounts at Maidenpool
and ride by way of Duskendale and Rosby. That should keep us well away from the worst of the
fighting."
Their host shook his head. "You'll never reach Maidenpool by river. Not thirty miles from here a couple
boats burned and sank, and the channel's been silting up around them. There's a nest of outlaws there
preying on anyone tries to come by, and more of the same downriver around the Skipping Stones and
Red Deer Island. And the lightning lord's been seen in these parts as well. He crosses the river wherever
he likes, riding this way and that way, never still."
"And who is this lightning lord?" demanded Ser Cleos Frey.
"Lord Beric, as it please you, ser. They call him that 'cause he strikes so sudden, like lightning from a
clear sky. It's said he cannot die."
They all die when you shove a sword through them, Jaime thought. "Does Thoros of Myr still ride with
him?"
"Aye. The red wizard. I've heard tell he has strange powers."
Well, he had the power to match Robert Baratheon drink for drink, and there were few enough who
could say that. Jaime had once heard Thoros tell the king that he became a red priest because the robes
hid the winestains so well. Robert had laughed so hard he'd spit ale all over Cersei's silken mantle. "Far
be it from me to make objection," he said, "but perhaps the Trident is not our safest course."
"I'd say that's so," their cook agreed. "Even if you get past Red Deer island and don't meet up with Lord
Beric and the red wizard, there's still the ruby ford before you. Last I heard, it was the Leech Lord's
wolves held the ford, but that was some time past. By now it could be lions again, or Lord Beric, or
anyone."


"Or no one," Brienne suggested.
"If m'lady cares to wager her skin on that I won't stop her ... but if I was you, I'd leave this here river,
cut overland. If you stay off the main roads and shelter under the trees of a night, hidden as it were ...
well, I still wouldn't want to go with you, but you might stand a mummer's chance."
The big wench was looking doubtful. "We would need horses."
"There are horses here," Jaime pointed out. "I heard one in the stable."
"Aye, there are," said the innkeep, who wasn't an innkeep. "Three of them, as it happens, but they're not
for sale."
Jaime had to laugh. "Of course not. But you'll show them to us anyway."
Brienne scowled, but the man who wasn't an innkeep met her eyes without blinking, and after a moment,
reluctantly, she said, "Show me," and they all rose from the table.
The stables had not been mucked out in a long while, from the smell of them. Hundreds of fat black flies
swarmed amongst the straw, buzzing from stall to stall and crawling over the mounds of horse dung that
lay everywhere, but there were only the three horses to be seen. They made an unlikely trio; a lumbering
brown plow horse, an ancient white gelding blind in one eye, and a knight's palfrey, dapple grey and
spirited. "They're not for sale at any price," their alleged owner announced.
"How did you come by these horses?" Brienne wanted to know.
"The dray was stabled here when the wife and me come on the inn," the man said, "along with the one
you just ate. The gelding come wandering up one night, and the boy caught the palfrey running free, still
saddled and bridled. Here, I'll show you."
The saddle he showed them was decorated with silver inlay. The saddlecloth had originally been
checkered pink and black, but now it was mostly brown. Jaime did not recognize the original colors, but
he recognized bloodstains easily enough. "Well, her owner won't be coming to claim her anytime soon."
He examined the palfrey's legs, counted the gelding's teeth. "Give him a gold piece for the grey, if he'll
include the saddle," he advised Brienne. "A silver for the plow horse. He ought to pay us for taking the
white off his hands."
"Don't speak discourteously of your horse, ser." The wench opened the purse Lady Catelyn had given
her and took out three golden coins. "I will pay you a dragon for each."
He blinked and reached for the gold, then hesitated and drew his hand back. "I don't know. I can't ride
no golden dragon if I need to get away. Nor eat one if I'm hungry."
"You can have our skiff as well," she said. "Sail up the river or down, as you like."
"Let me have a taste ol that gold." The man took one of the coins from her palm and bit it. "Hm. Real
enough, I'd say. Three dragons and the skiff?"
"He's robbing you blind, wench," Jaime said amiably.


"I'll want provisions too," Brienne told their host, ignoring Jaime. "Whatever you have that you can
spare."
"There's more oatcakes." The man scooped the other two dragons from her palm and jingled them in his
fist, smiling at the sound they
made. "Aye, and smoked salt fish, but that will cost you silver. My beds will be costing as well. You'll be
wanting to stay the night."
"No," Brienne said at once.
The man frowned at her. "Woman, you don't want to go riding at night through strange country on
horses you don't know. You're like to blunder into some bog or break your horse's leg."
"The moon will be bright tonight," Brienne said. "We'll have no trouble finding our way."
Their host chewed on that. "If you don't have the silver, might be some coppers would buy you them
beds, and a coverlet or two to keep you warm. It's not like I'm turning travelers away, if you get my
meaning."
"That sounds more than fair," said Ser Cleos.
"The coverlets is fresh washed, too. My wife saw to that before she had to go off. Not a flea to be found
neither, you have my word on that." He jingled the coins again, smiling.
Ser Cleos was plainly tempted. "A proper bed would do us all good, my lady," he said to Brienne.
"We'd make better time on the morrow once refreshed." He looked to his cousin for support.
"No, coz, the wench is right. We have promises to keep, and long leagues before us. We ought ride on."
"But," said Cleos, "you said yourself -
"Then." When I thought the inn deserted. "Now I have a full belly, and a moonlight ride will be just the
thing." He smiled for the wench. "But unless you mean to throw me over the back of that plow horse like
a sack of flour, someone had best do something about these irons. It's difficult to ride with your ankles
chained together."
Brienne frowned at the chain. The man who wasn't an innkeep rubbed his jaw. "There's a smithy round
back of the stable."
"Show me," Brienne said.
"Yes," said Jaime, "and the sooner the better. There's far too much horse shit about here for my taste. I
would hate to step in it." He gave the wench a sharp look, wondering if she was bright enough to take his
meaning.
He hoped she might strike the irons off his wrists as well, but Brienne was still suspicious. She split the
ankle chain in the center with a halfdozen sharp blows from the smith's hammer delivered to the blunt end
of a steel chisel. When he suggested that she break the wrist chain as well, she ignored him.
"Six miles downriver you'll see a burned village," their host said as he was helping them saddle the horses


and load their packs. This time he directed his counsel at Brienne. "The road splits there. If you turn
south, you'll come on Ser Warren's stone towerhouse. Ser Warren went off and died, so I couldn't say
who holds it now, but it's a place best
shunned. You'd do better to follow the track through the woods, south by east."
"We shall," she answered. "You have my thanks."
More to the point, he has your gold. Jaime kept the thought to himself. He was tired of being
disregarded by this huge ugly cow of a woman.
She took the plow horse for herself and assigned the palfrey to Ser Cleos. As threatened, Jaime drew
the one-eyed gelding, which put an end to any thoughts he might have had of giving his horse a kick and
leaving the wench in his dust.
The man and the boy came out to watch them leave. The man wished them luck and told them to come
back in better times, while the lad stood silent, his crossbow under his arm. "Take up the spear or maul,"
Jaime told him, "they'll serve you better." The boy stared at him distrustfully. So much for friendly advice.
He shrugged, turned his horse, and never looked back.
Ser Cleos was all complaints as they rode out, still in mouming for his lost featherbed. They rode east,
along the bank of the moonlit river. The Red Fork was very broad here, but shallow, its banks all mud
and reeds. Jaime's mount plodded along placidly, though the poor old thing had a tendency to want to
drift off to the side of his good eye. It felt good to be mounted once more. He had not been on a horse
since Robb Stark's archers had killed his destrier under him in the Whispering Wood.
When they reached the burned village, a choice of equally unpromising roads confronted them; narrow
tracks, deeply rutted by the carts of farmers hauling their grain to the river. One wandered off toward the
southeast and soon vanished amidst the trees they could see in the distance, while the other, straighter
and stonier, arrowed due south. Brienne considered them briefly, and then swung her horse onto the
southern road. Jaime was pleasantly surprised; it was the same choice he would have made.
"But this is the road the innkeep warned us against," Ser Cleos objected.
"He was no innkeep." She hunched gracelessly in the saddle, but seemed to have a sure seat
nonetheless. "The man took too great an interest in our choice of route, and those woods ... such places
are notorious haunts of outlaws. He may have been urging us into a trap."
"Clever wench." Jaime smiled at his cousin. "Our host has friends down that road, I would venture. The
ones whose mounts gave that stable such a memorable aroma."
"He may have been lying about the river as well, to put us on these horses," the wench said, "but I could
not take the risk. There will be soldiers at the ruby ford and the crossroads."
Well, she may be ugly but she's not entirely stupid. Jaime gave her a grudging smile.
The ruddy light from the upper windows of the stone towerhouse gave them warning of its presence a
long way off, and Brienne led them off into the fields. Only when the stronghold was well to the rear did
they angle back and find the road again.
Half the night passed before the wench allowed that it might be safe to stop. By then all three of them


were drooping in their saddles. They sheltered in a small grove of oak and ash beside a sluggish stream.
The wench would allow no fire, so they shared a midnight supper of stale oatcakes and salt fish. The
night was strangely peaceful. The half-moon sat overhead in a black felt sky, surrounded by stars. Off in
the distance, some wolves were howling. One of their horses whickered nervously. There was no other
sound. The war has not touched this place, Jaime thought. He was glad to be here, glad to be alive, glad
to be on his way back to Cersei.
"I'll take the first watch," Brienne told Ser Cleos, and Frey was soon snoring softly.
Jaime sat against the bole of an oak and wondered what Cersei and Tyrion were doing just now. "Do
you have any siblings, my lady? " he asked.
Brienne squinted at him suspiciously. "No. I was my father's only s child."
Jaime chuckled. "Son, you meant to say. Does he think of you as a son? You make a queer sort of
daughter, to be sure."
Wordless, she turned away from him, her knuckles tight on her sword hilt. What a wretched creature
this one is. She reminded him of Tyrion in some queer way, though at first blush two people could
scarcely be any more dissimilar. Perhaps it was that thought of his brother that made him say, "I did not
intend to'give offense, Brienne. Forgive me."
"Your crimes are past forgiving, Kingslayer."
"That name again." Jaime twisted idly at his chains. "Why do I enrage you so? I've never done you harm
that I know of."
"You've harmed others. Those you were sworn to protect. The weak, the innocent. . . "
". . . the king?" It always came back to Aerys. "Don't presume to judge what you do not understand,
wench."
"My name is - "
" - Brienne, yes. Has anyone ever told you that you're as tedious as you are ugly?"
"You will not provoke me to anger, Kingslayer."
"Oh, I might, if I cared enough to try."
"Why did you take the oath?" she demanded. "Why don the white cloak if you meant to betray all it
stood for?"
Why? What could he say that she might possibly understand? "I was a boy. Fifteen. It was a great honor
for one so young."
"That is no answer," she said scornfully.
You would not like the truth. He had joined the Kingsguard for love, of course.
Their father had summoned Cersei to court when she was twelve, hoping to make her a royal marriage.


He refused every offer for her hand, preferring to keep her with him in the Tower of the Hand while she
grew older and more womanly and ever more beautiful. No doubt he was waiting for Prince Viserys to
mature, or perhaps for Rhaegar's wife to die in childbed. Elia of Dome was never the healthiest of
women.
Jaime, meantime, had spent four years as squire to Ser Sumner Crakehall and earned his spurs against
the Kingswood Brotherhood. But when he made a brief call at King's Landing on his way back to
Casterly Rock, chiefly to see his sister, Cersei took him aside and whispered that Lord Tywin meant to
marry him to Lysa Tully, had gone so far as to invite Lord Hoster to the city to discuss dower. But if
Jaime took the white, he could be near her always. Old Ser Harlan Grandison had died in his sleep, as
was only appropriate for one whose sigil was a sleeping lion. Aerys would want a young man to take his
place, so why not a roaring lion in place of a sleepy one?
"Father will never consent," Jaime objected.
"The king won't ask him. And once it's done, Father can't object, not openly. Aerys had Ser Ilyn
Payne's tongue tom out just for boasting that it was the Hand who truly ruled the Seven Kingdoms. The
captain of the Hand's guard, and yet Father dared not try and stop it! He won't stop this, either."
"But," Jaime said, "there's Casterly Rock..."
"Is it a rock you want? Or me?"
He remembered that night as if it were yesterday. They spent it in an old inn on Eel Alley, well away
from watchful eyes. Cersei had come to him dressed as a simple serving wench, which somehow excited
him all the more. Jaime had never seen her more passionate. Every time he went to sleep, she woke him
again. By morning Casterly Rock seemed a small price to pay to be near her always. He gave his
consent, and Cersei promised to do the rest.
A moon's turn later, a royal raven arrived at Casterly Rock to inform him that he had been chosen for
the Kingsguard. He was commanded to present himself to the king during the great tourney at Harrenhal
to say his vows and don his cloak.
Jaime's investiture freed him from Lysa Tully. Elsewise, nothing went as planned. His father had never
been more furious. He could not object openly - Cersei had judged that correctly - but he resigned the
Handship on some thin pretext and returned to Casterly Rock, taking his daughter with him. Instead of
being together, Cersei and Jaime just changed places,
and he found himself alone at court, guarding a mad king while four lesser men took their turns dancing
on knives in his father's ill-fitting shoes. So swiftly did the Hands rise and fall that Jaime remembered their
heraldry better than their faces. The horn-of-plenty Hand and the dancing griffins Hand had both been
exiled, the mace-and-dagger Hand dipped in wildfire and burned alive. Lord Rossart had been the last.
His sigil had been a burning torch; an unfortunate choice, given the fate of his predecessor, but the
alchemist had been elevated largely because he shared the king's passion for fire. I ought to have
drowned Rossart instead of gutting him.
Brienne was still awaiting his answer. Jaime said, "You are not old enough to have known Aerys
Targaryen . . . "
She would not hear it. "Aerys was mad and cruel, no one has ever denied that. He was still king,
crowned and anointed. And you had swom to protect him."


"I know what I swore."
"And what you did." She loomed above him, six feet of freckled, frowning, horse-toothed disapproval.
"Yes, and what you did as well. We're both kingslayers here, if what I've heard is true."
"I never harmed Renly. I'll kill the man who says I did."
"Best start with Cleos, then. And you'll have a deal of killing to do after that, the way he tells the tale."
"Lies. Lady Catelyn was there when His Grace was murdered, she saw. There was a shadow. The
candles guttered and the air grew cold, and there was blood - "
"Oh, very good." Jaime laughed. "Your wits are quicker than mine, I confess it. When they found me
standing over my dead king, I never thought to say, 'No, no, it wasn't me, it was a shadow, a terrible
cold shadow."' He laughed again. "Tell me true, one kingslayer to another did the Starks pay you to slit
his throat, or was it Stannis? Had Renly spurned you, was that the way of it? Or perhaps your moon's
blood was on you. Never give a wench a sword when she's bleeding."
For a moment Jaime thought Brienne might strike him. A step closer, and I'll snatch that dagger from her
sheath and bury it up her womb. He gathered a leg under him, ready to spring, but the wench did not
move. "It is a rare and precious gift to be a knight," she said, "and even more so a knight of the
Kingsguard. It is a gift given to few, a gift you scorned and soiled."
A gift you want desperately, wench, and can never have. "I earned my knighthood. Nothing was given to
me. I won a tourney melee at thirteen, when I was yet a squire. At fifteen, I rode with Ser Arthur Dayne
against the Kingswood Brotherhood, and he knighted me on the
battlefield. It was that white cloak that soiled me, not the other way around. So spare me your envy. It
was the gods who neglected to give you a cock, not me."
The look Brienne gave him then was full of loathing. She would gladly hack me to pieces, but for her
precious vow, he reflected. Good. I've had enough of feeble pieties and maidens' judgments. The wench
stalked off without saying a word. Jaime curled up beneath his cloak, hoping to dream of Cersei.
But when he closed his eyes, it was Aerys Targaryen he saw, pacing alone in his throne room, picking at
his scabbed and bleeding hands. The fool was always cutting himself on the blades and barbs of the Iron
Throne. Jaime had slipped in through the king's door, clad in his golden armor, sword in hand. The
golden armor, not the white, but no one ever remembers that. Would that I had taken off that damned
cloak as well.
When Aerys saw the blood on his blade, he demanded to know if it was Lord Tywin's. "I want him
dead, the traitor. I want his head, you'll bring me his head, or you'll bum with all the rest. All the traitors.
Rossart says they are inside the walls! He's gone to make them a warm welcome. Whose blood?
Whose?"
"Rossart's," answered Jaime.
Those purple eyes grew huge then, and the royal mouth drooped open in shock. He lost control of his
bowels, turned, and ran for the Iron Throne. Beneath the empty eyes of the skulls on the walls, Jaime


hauled the last dragonking bodily off the steps, squealing like a pig and smelling like a privy. A single slash
across his throat was all it took to end it. So easy, he remembered thinking. A king should die harder
than this. Rossart at least had tried to make a fight of it, though if truth be told he fought like an alchemist.
Queer that they never ask who killed Rossart ... but of course, he was no one, lowborn, Hand for a
fortnight, just another mad fancy of the Mad King.
Ser Elys Westerling and Lord Crakehall and others of his father's knights burst into the hall in time to see
the last of it, so there was no way for Jaime to vanish and let some braggart steal the praise or blame. It
would be blame, he knew at once when he saw the way they looked at him ... though perhaps that was
fear. Lannister or no, he was one of Aerys's seven.
"The castle is ours, ser, and the city," Roland Crakehall told him, which was half true. Targaryen loyalists
were still dying on the serpentine steps and in the armory, Gregor Clegane and Amory Lorch were
scaling the walls of Maegor's Holdfast, and Ned Stark was leading his northmen through the King's Gate
even then, but Crakehall could not have known that. He had not seemed surprised to find Aerys slain;
Jaime had been Lord Tywin's son long before he had been named to the Kingsguard.
"Tell them the Mad King is dead," he commanded. "Spare all those who yield and hold them captive,"
"Shall I proclaim a new king as well?" Crakehall asked, and Jaime read the question plain: Shall it be
your father, or Robert Baratheon, or do you mean to try to make a new dragonking? He thought for a
moment of the boy Viserys, fled to Dragonstone, and of Rhaegar's infant son Aegon, still in Maegor's
with his mother. A new Targaryen king, and my father as Hand. How the wolves will howl, and the storm
lord choke with rage. For a moment he was tempted, until he glanced down again at the body on the
floor, in its spreading pool of blood. His blood is in both of them, he thought. "Proclaim who you bloody
well like," he told Crakehall. Then he climbed the Iron Throne and seated himself with his sword across
his knees, to see who would come to claim the kingdom. As it happened, it had been Eddard Stark.
You had no right to judge me either, Stark.
in his dreams the dead came burning, gowned in swirling green flames. Jaime danced around them with a
golden sword, but for every one he struck down two more arose to take his place.
Brienne woke him with a boot in the ribs. The world was still black, and it had begun to rain. They
broke their fast on oatcakes, salt fish, and some blackberries that Ser Cleos had found, and were back in
the saddle before the sun came up.
Chapter 12
TYRION
The eunuch was humming tunelessly to himself as he came through the door, dressed in flowing robes of
peachcolored silk and smelling of lemons. When he saw Tyrion seated by the hearth, he stopped and
grew very still. "My lord Tyrion," came out in a squeak, punctuated by a nervous giggle.
"So you do remember me? I had begun to wonder."


"It is so very good to see you looking so strong and well." Varys smiled his slimiest smile. "Though I
confess, I had not thought to find you in mine own humble chambers."
"They are humble. Excessively so, in truth." Tyrion had waited until Varys was summoned by his father
before slipping in to pay him a visit. The eunuch's apartments were sparse and small, three snug
windowless chambers under the north wall. "I'd hoped to discover bushel baskets of juicy secrets to
while away the waiting, but there's not a paper to be found." He'd searched for hidden passages too,
knowing the Spider must have ways of coming and going unseen, but those had proved equally elusive.
"There was water in your flagon, gods have mercy," he went on, /iyour sleeping cell is no wider than a
coffin, and that bed ... is it actually made of stone, or does it only feel that way?"
Varys closed the door and barred it. "I am plagued with backaches, my lord, and prefer to sleep upon a
hard surface."
"I would have taken you for a featherbed man."
"I am full of surprises. Are you cross with me for abandoning you after the battle?"
"It made me think of you as one of my family."
"It was not for want of love, my good lord. I have such a delicate disposition, and your scar is so
dreadful to look upon..." He gave an exaggerated shudder. "Your poor nose..."
Tyrion rubbed irritably at the scab. "Perhaps I should have a new one made of gold. What sort of nose
would you suggest, Varys? One like yours, to smell out secrets? Or should I tell the goldsmith that I want
my father's nose?" He smiled. "My noble father labors so diligently that I scarce see him anymore. Tell
me, is it true that he's restoring Grand Maester Pycelle to the small council?"
"It is, my lord."
"Do I have my sweet sister to thank for that?" Pycelle had been his sister's creature; Tyrion had stripped
the man of office, beard, and dignity, and flung him down into a black cell.
"Not at all, my lord. Thank the archmaesters of Oldtown, those who wished to insist on Pycelle's
restoration on the grounds that only the Conclave may make or unmake a Grand Maester."
Bloody fools, thought Tyrion. "I seem to recall that Maegor the Cruel's headsman unmade three with his
axe."
"Quite true," Varys said. "And the second Aegon fed Grand Maester Gerardys to his dragon."
"Alas, I am quite dragonless. I suppose I could have dipped Pycelle in wildfire and set him ablaze.
Would the Citadel have preferred that?"
"Well, it would have been more in keeping with tradition." The eunuch tittered. "Thankfully, wiser heads
prevailed, and the Conclave accepted the fact of Pycelle's dismissal and set about choosing his
successor. After giving due consideration to Maester Turquin the cordwainer's son and Maester Erreck
the hedge knight's bastard, and thereby demonstrating to their own satisfaction that ability counts for
more than birth in their order, the Conclave was on the verge of sending us Maester Gormon, a Tyrell of
Highgarden. When I told your lord father, he acted at once."


The Conclave met in Oldtown behind closed doors, Tyrion knew; its deliberations were supposedly a
secret. So Varys has little birds in the Citadel too. "I see. So my father decided to nip the rose before it
bloomed." He had to chuckle. "Pycelle is a toad. But better a Lannister toad than a Tyrell toad, no?"
"Grand Maester Pycelle has always been a good friend to your House," Varys said sweetly. "Perhaps it
will console you to learn that Ser Boros Blount is also being restored."
Cersei had stripped Ser Boros of his white cloak for failing to die in the defense of Prince Tornmen
when Bronn had seized the boy on the Rosby road. The man was no friend of Tyrion's, but after that he
likely hated Cersei almost as much. I suppose that's something. "Blount is a blustering coward," he said
amiably.
"Is he? Oh dear. Still, the knights of the Kingsguard do serve for life, traditionally. Perhaps Ser Boros
will prove braver in future. He will no doubt remain very loyal."
"To my father," said Tyrion pointedly.
"While we are on the subject of the Kingsguard ... I wonder, could this delightfully unexpected visit of
yours happen to concern Ser Boros's fallen brother, the gallant Ser Mandon Moore?" The eunuch
stroked a powdered cheek. "Your man Brorm seems most interested in him of late."
Bronn had turned up all he could on Ser Mandon, but no doubt Varys knew a deal more ... should he
choose to share it. "The man seems to have been quite friendless," Tyrion said carefully.
"Sadly," said Varys, "oh, sadly. You might find some kin if you turned over enough stones back in the
Vale, but here ... Lord Arryn brought him to King's Landing and Robert gave him his white cloak, but
neither loved him much, I fear. Nor was he the sort the smallfolk cheer in tourneys, despite his undoubted
prowess. Why, even his brothers of the Kingsguard never warmed to him. Ser Barristan was once heard
to say that the man had no friend but his sword and no life but duty ... but you know, I do not think
Selmy meant it altogether as praise. Which is queer when you consider it, is it not? Those are the very
qualities we seek in our Kingsguard, it could be said - men who live not for themselves, but for their king.
By those lights, our brave Ser Mandon was the perfect white knight. And he died as a knight of the
Kingsguard ought, with sword in hand, defending one of the king's own blood." The eunuch gave him a
slimy smile and watched him sharply.
Trying to murder one of the king's own blood, you mean. Tyrion wondered if Varys knew rather more
than he was saying. Nothing he'd just heard was new to him; Brorm had brought back much the same
reports. He needed a link to Cersei, some sign that Ser Mandon had been his sister's catspaw. What we
want is not always what we get, he reflected bitterly, which reminded him ...
"It is not Ser Mandon who brings me here."
"To be sure." The eunuch crossed the room to his flagon of water. "May I serve you, my lord?" he asked
as he filled a cup.
"Yes. But not with water." He folded his hands together. "I want you to bring me Shae."
Varys took a drink. "Is that wise, my lord? The dear sweet child. it would be such a shame if your father
hanged her."
It did not surprise him that Varys knew. "No, it's not wise, it's bloody madness. I want to see her one


last time, before I send her away. I cannot abide having her so close."
"I understand."
How could you? Tyrion had seen her only yesterday, climbing the
serpentine steps with a pail of water. He had watched as a young knight had offered to carry the heavy
pail. The way she had touched his arm and smiled for him had tied Tyrion's guts into knots. They passed
within inches of each other, him descending and her climbing, so close that he could smell the clean fresh
scent of her hair. "M'Iord," she'd said to him, with a little curtsy, and he wanted to reach out and grab her
and kiss her right there, but all he could do was nod stiffly and waddle on past. "I have seen her several
times," he told Varys, "but I dare not speak to her. I suspect that all my movements are being watched."
"You are wise to suspect so, my good lord."
"Who?" He cocked his head.
"The Kettleblacks report frequently to your sweet sister."
"When I think of how much coin I paid those wretched ... do you think there's any chance that more
gold might win them away from Cersei?"
"There is always a chance, but I should not care to wager on the likelihood. They are knights now, all
three, and your sister has promised them further advancement." A wicked little titter burst from the
eunuch's lips. "And the eldest, Ser Osmund of the Kingsguard, dreams of certain other ... favors ... as
well. You can match the queen coin for coin, I have no doubt, but she has a second purse that is quite
inexhaustible."
Seven hells, thought Tyrion. "Are you suggesting that Cersei's fucking Osmund Kettleblack?"
"Oh, dear me, no, that would be dreadfully dangerous, don't you think? No, the queen only hints ...
perhaps on the morrow, or when the wedding's done ... and then a smile, a whisper, a ribald jest ... a
breast brushing lightly against his sleeve as they pass ... and yet it seems to serve. But what would a
eunuch know of such things?" The tip of his tongue ran across his lower lip like a shy pink animal.
If I could somehow push them beyond sly fondling, arrange for Father to catch them abed together ...
Tyrion fingered the scab on his nose. He did not see how it could be done, but perhaps some plan would
come to him later. "Are the Kettleblacks the only ones?"
"Would that were true, my lord. I fear there are many eyes upon you. You are ... how shall we say?
Conspicuous? And not well loved, it grieves me to tell you. Janos Slynt's sons would gladly inform on
you to avenge their father, and our sweet Lord Petyr has friends in half the brothels of King's Landing.
Should you be so unwise as to visit any of them, he will know at once, and your lord father soon
thereafter."
It's even worse than I feared. "And my father? Who does he have spying on me?"
This time the eunuch laughed aloud. "Why, me, my lord."
Tyrion laughed as well. He was not so great a fool as to trust Varys any further than he had to - but the
eunuch already knew enough about Shae to get her well and thoroughly hanged. "You will bring Shae to


me through the walls, hidden from all these eyes. As you have done before."
Varys wrung his hands. "Oh, my lord, nothing would please me more, but ... King Maegor wanted no
rats in his own walls, if you take my meaning. He did require a means of secret egress, should he ever be
trapped by his enemies, but that door does not connect with any other passages. I can steal your Shae
away from Lady Lollys for a time, to be sure, but I have no way to bring her to your bedchamber without
us being seen."
"Then bring her somewhere else."
"But where? There is no safe place."
"There is." Tyrion grinned. "Here. It's time to put that rock-hard bed of yours to better use, I think."
The eunuch's mouth opened. Then he giggled. "Lollys tires easily these days. She is great with child. I
imagine she will be safely asleep by moonrise."
Tyrion hopped down from the chair. "Moonrise, then. See that you lay in some wine. And two clean
cups."
Varys bowed. "it shall be as my lord commands."
The rest of the day seemed to creep by as slow as a worm in molasses. Tyrion climbed to the castle
library and tried to distract himself with Beldecar's History of the Rhoynish Wars, but he could hardly see
the elephants for imagining Shae's smile. Come the afternoon, he put the book aside and called for a
bath. He scrubbed himself until the water grew cool, and then had Pod even out his whiskers. His beard
was a trial to him; a tangle of yellow, white, and black hairs, patchy and coarse, it was seldom less than
unsightly, but it did serve to conceal some of his face, and that was all to the good.
When he was as clean and pink and trimmed as he was like to get, Tyrion looked over his wardrobe,
and chose a pair of tight satin breeches in Lannister crimson and his best doublet, the heavy black velvet
with the lion's head studs. He would have donned his chain of golden hands as well, if his father hadn't
stolen it while he lay dying. It was not until he was dressed that he realized the depths of his folly. Seven
hells, dwarf, did you lose all your sense along with your nose? Anyone who sees you is going to wonder
why you've put on your court clothes to visit the eunuch. Cursing, Tyrion stripped and dressed again, in
simpler garb; black woolen breeches, an old white tunic, and a faded brown leather jerkin. It doesn't
matter, he told himself as he waited for moonrise. Whatever you wear, you're still a dwarf. You'll never
be as tall as that knight on the steps, him with his long straight legs and hard stomach and wide manly
shoulders.
The moon was peeping over the castle wall when he told Podrick Payne that he was going to pay a call
on Varys. "Will you be long, my lord?" the boy asked.
"Oh, I hope so."
With the Red Keep so crowded, Tyrion could not hope to go unnoticed. Ser Balon Swann stood guard
on the door, and Ser Loras Tyrell on the drawbridge. He stopped to exchange pleasantries with both of
them. It was strange to see the Knight of Flowers all in white when before he had always been as colorful
as a rainbow. "How old are you, Ser Loras?" Tyrion asked him.
"Seventeen, my lord."


Seventeen, and beautiful, and already a legend. Half the girls in the Seven Kingdoms want to bed him,
and all the boys want to be him. "If you will pardon my asking, ser - why would anyone choose to join
the Kingsguard at seventeen?"
"Prince Aemon the Dragonknight took his vows at seventeen," Ser Loras said, "and your brother Jaime
was younger still."
"I know their reasons. What are yours? The honor of serving beside such paragons as Meryn Trant and
Boros Blount?" He gave the boy a mocking grin. "To guard the king's life, you surrender your own. You
give up your lands and titles, give up hope of marriage, children. . . "
"House Tyrell continues through my brothers," Ser Loras said. "It is not necessary for a third son to wed,
or breed."
"Not necessary, but some find it pleasant. What of love?"
"When the sun has set, no candle can replace it."
"Is that from a song?" Tyrion cocked his head, smiling. "Yes, you are seventeen, I see that now."
Ser Loras tensed. "Do you mock me?"
A prickly lad. "No. If I've given offense, forgive me. I had my own love once, and we had a song as
well." I loved a maid as fair as summer, with sunlight in her hair. He bid Ser Loras a good evening and
went on his way.
Near the kennels a group of men-at-arms were fighting a pair of dogs. Tyrion stopped long enough to
see the smaller dog tear half the face off the larger one, and earned a few coarse laughs by observing that
the loser now resembled Sandor Clegane. Then, hoping he had disarmed their suspicions, he proceeded
to the north wall and down the short flight of steps to the eunuch's meager abode. The door opened as he
was lifting his hand to knock.
"Varys?" Tyrion slipped inside. "Are you there?" A single candle lit the gloom, spicing the air with the
scent of jasmine.
"My lord." A woman sidled into the light; plump, soft, matronly, with a round pink moon of a face and
heavy dark curls. Tyrion recoiled. "Is something amiss?" she asked.
Varys, he realized with annoyance. "For one horrid moment I thought you'd brought me Lollys instead of
Shae. Where is she?"
"Here, m'lord." She put her hands over his eyes from behind. "Can you guess what I'm wearing?"
"Nothing?"
"Oh, you're so smart," she pouted, snatching her hands away. "How did you know?"
"You're very beautiful in nothing."
"Am I?" she said. "Am I truly?"


it
"Oh yes.
"Then shouldn't you be fucking me instead of talking?"
"We need to rid ourselves of Lady Varys first. I am not the sort of dwarf who likes an audience."
"He's gone," Shae said.
Tyrion turned to look. It was true. The eunuch had vanished, skirts and all. The hidden doors are here
somewhere, they have to be. That was as much as he had time to think, before Shae turned his head to
kiss him. Her mouth was wet and hungry, and she did not even seem to see his scar, or the raw scab
where his nose had been. Her skin was warm silk beneath his fingers. When his thumb brushed against
her left nipple, it hardened at once. "Hurry," she urged, between kisses, as his fingers went to his laces,
"oh, hurry, hurry, I want you in me, in me, in me." He did not even have time to undress properly. Shae
pulled his cock out of his breeches, then pushed him down onto the floor and climbed atop him. She
screamed as he pushed past her lips, and rode him wildly, moaning, "My giant, my giant, my giant," every
time she slammed down on him. Tyrion was so eager that he exploded on the fifth stroke, but Shae did
not seem to mind. She smiled wickedly when she felt him spurting, and leaned forward to kiss the sweat
from his brow. "My giant of Lannister," she murmured. "Stay inside me, please. I like to feel you there."
So Tyrion did not move, except to put his arms around her. It feels so good to hold her, and to be held,
he thought. How can something this sweet be a crime worth hanging her for? "Shae," he said, "sweetling,
this must be our last time together. The danger is too great. If my lord father should find you..."
"I like your scar." She traced it with her finger. "It makes you look very fierce and strong."
He laughed. "Very ugly, you mean."
"M'lord will never be ugly in my eyes." She kissed the scab that covered the ragged stub of his nose.
"It's not my face that need concern you, it's my father -
"He does not frighten me. Will m'lord give me back my jewels and
silks now? I asked Varys if I could have them when you were hurt in the battle, but he wouldn't give
them to me. What would have become of them if you'd died?"
"I didn't die. Here I am."
"I know." Shae wriggled atop him, smiling. "Just where you belong." Her mouth turned pouty. "But how
long must I go on with Lollys, now that you're well?"
"Have you been listening?" Tyrion said. "You can stay with Lollys if you like, but it would be best if you
left the city."
"I don't want to leave. You promised you'd move me into a manse again after the battle." Her cunt gave
him a little squeeze, and he started to stiffen again inside her. "A Lannister always pays his debts, you
said."


"Shae, gods be damned, stop that. Listen to me. You have to go away. The city's full of Tyrells just now,
and I am closely watched. You don't understand the dangers."
"Can I come to the king's wedding feast? Lollys won't go. I told her no one's like to rape her in the
king's own throne room, but she's so stupid." When Shae rolled off, his cock slid out of her with a soft
wet sound. "Symon says there's to be a singers' tourney, and tumblers, even a fools' joust."
Tyrion had almost forgotten about Shae's thrice-damned singer. "How is it you spoke to Symon?"
"I told Lady Tanda about him, and she hired him to play for Lollys. The music calms her when the baby
starts to kick. Symon says there's to be a dancing bear at the feast, and wines from the Arbor. I've never
seen a bear dance."
"They do it worse than I do." It was the singer who concerned him, not the bear. One careless word in
the wrong ear, and Shae would hang.
"Symon says there's to be seventy-seven courses and a hundred doves baked into a great pie," Shae
gushed. "When the crust's opened, they'll all burst out and fly."
"After which they will roost in the rafters and rain down birdshit on the guests." Tyrion had suffered such
wedding pies before. The doves liked to shit on him especially, or so he had always suspected.
"Couldn't I dress in my silks and velvets and go as a lady instead of a maidservant? No one would know
I wasn't."
Everyone would know you weren't, thought Tyrion. "Lady Tanda might wonder where Lollys's bedmaid
found so many jewels."
"There's to be a thousand guests, Symon says. She'd never even see me. I'd find a place in some dark
comer below the salt, but whenever you got up to go to the privy I could slip out and meet you." She
cupped his cock and stroked it gently. "I won't wear any smallclothes under my gown, so m'lord won't
even need to unlace me." Her fingers teased him,
up and down. "Or if he liked, I could do this for him." She took him in her mouth.
Tyrion was soon ready again. This time he lasted much longer. When he finished Shae crawled back up
him and curled up naked under his arm. "You'll let me come, won't you?"
"Shae," he groaned, "it is not safe."
For a time she said nothing at all. Tyrion tried to speak of other things, but he met a wall of sullen
courtesy as icy and unyielding as the Wall he'd once walked in the north. Gods be good, he thought
wearily as he watched the candle bum down and begin to gutter, how could I let this happen again, after
Tysha? Am I as great a fool as my father thinks? Gladly would he have given her the promise she
wanted, and gladly walked her back to his own bedchamber on his arm to let her dress in the silks and
velvets she loved so much. Had the choice been his, she could have sat beside him at Joffrey's wedding
feast, and danced with all the bears she liked. But he could not see her hang.
When the candle burned out, Tyrion disentangled himself and lit another. Then he made a round of the
walls, tapping on each in turn, searching for the hidden door. Shae sat with her legs drawn up and her


arms wrapped around them, watching him. Finally she said, "They're under the bed. The secret steps."
He looked at her, incredulous. "The bed? The bed is solid stone. It weighs half a ton."
"There's a place where Varys pushes, and it floats right up. I asked him how, and he said it was magic."
"Yes." Tyrion had to grin. "A counterweight spell."
Shae stood. "I should go back. Sometimes the baby kicks and Lollys wakes and calls for me."
"Varys should return shortly. He's probably listening to every word we say." Tyrion set the candle down.
There was a wet spot on the front of his breeches but in the darkness it ought to go unnoticed. He told
Shae to dress and wait for the eunuch.
"I will," she promised. "You are my lion, aren't you? My giant of Lannister?"
"I am," he said. "And you're -
" - your whore." She laid a finger to his lips. "I know. I'd be your lady, but I never can. Else you'd take
me to the feast. It doesn't matter. I like being a whore for you, Tyrion. just keep me, my lion, and keep
me saf e. "
"I shall," he promised. Fool, fool, the voice inside him screamed. Why did you say that? You came here
to send her away! Instead he kissed her once more.
The walk back seemed long and lonely. Podrick Payne was asleep in
his trundle bed at the foot of Tyrion's, but he woke the boy. "Bronn," he said.
"Ser Bronn?" Pod rubbed the sleep from his eyes. "Oh. Should I get him? My lord?"
"Why no, I woke you up so we could have a little chat about the way he dresses," said Tyrion, but his
sarcasm was wasted. Pod only gaped at him in confusion until he threw up his hands and said, "Yes, get
him. Bring him. Now."
The lad dressed hurriedly and all but ran from the room. Am I really so terriyying? Tyrion wondered, as
he changed into a bedrobe and poured himself some wine.
He was on his third cup and half the night was gone before Pod finally returned, with the sellsword
knight in tow. "I hope the boy had a damn good reason dragging me out of Chataya's," Bronn said as he
seated himself.
"Chataya's?" Tyrion said, annoyed.
"It's good to be a knight. No more looking for the cheaper brothels down the street." Bronn grinned.
"Now it's Alayaya and Marei in the same featherbed, with Ser Bronn in the middle."
Tyrion had to bite back his annoyance. Bronn had as much right to bed Alayaya as any other man, but
still ... I never touched her, much as I wanted to, but Bronn could not know that. He should have kept his
cock out of her. He dare not visit Chataya's himself. If he did, Cersei would see that his father heard of it,
and 'Yaya would suffer more than a whipping. He'd sent the girl a necklace of silver and jade and a pair


of matching bracelets by way of apology, but other than that ...
This is fruitless. "There is a singer who calls himself Symon Silver Tongue," Tyrion said wearily, pushing
his guilt aside. "He plays for Lady Tanda's daughter sometimes."
"What of him?"
Kill him, he might have said, but the man had done nothing but sing a few songs. And fill Shae's sweet
head with visions of doves and dancing bears. "Find him," he said instead. "Find him before someone else
does."
Chapter 13
Arya
She was grubbing for vegetables in a dead man's garden when she heard the singing.
Arya stiffened, still as stone, listening, the three stringy carrots in her hand suddenly forgotten. She
thought of the Bloody Mummers and Roose Bolton's men, and a shiver of fear went down her back. It's
not fair, not when we finally found the Trident, not when we thought we were almost safe.
Only why would the Mummers be singing?
The song came drifting up the river from somewhere beyond the little rise to the east. "Off to Gulltown to
see the fair maid, heigh-ho, heigh-ho..."
Arya rose, carrots dangling from her hand. It sounded like the singer was coming up the river road. Over
among the cabbages, Hot Pie had heard it too, to judge by the look on his face. Gendry had gone to
sleep in the shade of the burned cottage, and was past hearing anything.
"I'll steal a sweet kiss with the point of my blade, heigh-ho, heigh-ho." She thought she heard a
woodharp too, beneath the soft rush of the river.
"Do you hear?" Hot Pie asked in a hoarse whisper, as he hugged an armful of cabbages. "Someone's
coming."
"Go wake Gendry," Arya told him. "Just shake him by the shoulder, don't make a lot of noise." Gendry
was easy to wake, unlike Hot Pie, who needed to be kicked and shouted at.
"I'll make her my love and we'll rest in the shade, heigh-ho, heigh-ho. The song swelled louder with
every word.
Hot Pie opened his arms. The cabbages fell to the ground with soft thumps. "We have to hide."
Where? The burned cottage and its overgrown garden stood hard beside the banks of the Trident.
There were a few willows growing along the river's edge and reed beds in the muddy shallows beyond,
but most of the ground hereabouts was painfully open. I knew we should never have left the woods, she


thought. They'd been so hungry, though, and the garden had been too much a temptation. The bread and
cheese they had stolen from Harrenhal had given out six days ago, back in the thick of the woods. "Take
Gendry and the horses behind the cottage," she decided. There was part of one wall still standing, big
enough, maybe, to conceal two boys and three horses. If the horses don't whinny, and that singer doesn't
come poking around the garden.
"What about you?"
"I'll hide by the tree. He's probably alone. If he bothers me, I'll kill him. Go!"
Hot Pie went, and Arya dropped her carrots and drew the stolen sword from over her shoulder. She
had strapped the sheath across her back; the longsword was made for a man grown, and it bumped
against the ground when she wore it on her hip. It's too heavy besides, she thought, missing Needle the
way she did every time she took this clumsy thing in her hand. But it was a sword and she could kill with
it, that was enough.
Lightfoot, she moved to the big old willow that grew beside the bend in the road and went to one knee
in the grass and mud, within the veil of trailing branches. You old gods, she prayed as the singer's voice
grew louder, you tree gods, hide me, and make him go past. Then a horse whickered, and the song
broke off suddenly. He's heard, she knew, but maybe he's alone, or if he's not, maybe they'll be as
scared of us as we are of them.
"Did you hear that?" a man's voice said. "There's something behind that wall, I would say."
"Aye," replied a second voice, deeper. "What do you think it might be, Archer?"
Two, then. Arya bit her lip. She could not see them from where she knelt, on account of the willow. But
she could hear.
"A bear." A third voice, or the first one again?
"A lot of meat on a bear," the deep voice said. "A lot of fat as well, in fall. Good to eat, if it's cooked up
right."
"Could be a wolf. Maybe a lion."
"With four feet, you think? Or two?"
"Makes no matter. Does it?"
"Not so I know. Archer, what do you mean to do with all them arrows? "
"Drop a few shafts over the wall. Whatever's hiding back there will come out quick enough, watch and
see."
"What if it's some honest man back there, though? Or some poor woman with a little babe at her
breast?"
"An honest man would come out and show us his face. Only an outlaw would skulk and hide."
"Aye, that's so. Go on and loose your shafts, then."


Arya sprang to her feet. "Don't!" She showed them her sword. There were three, she saw. Only three.
Syrio could fight more than three, and she had Hot Pie and Gendry to stand with her, maybe. But they're
boys, and these are men.
They were men afoot, travel-stained and mud-specked. She knew the singer by the woodharp he
cradled against his jerkin, as a mother might cradle a babe. A small man, fifty from the look of him, he
had a big mouth, a sharp nose, and thinning brown hair. His faded greens were mended here and there
with old leather patches, and he wore a brace of throwing knives on his hip and a woodman's axe slung
across his back.
The man beside him stood a good foot taller, and had the look of a soldier. A longsword and dirk hung
from his studded leather belt, rows of overlapping steel rings were sewn onto his shirt, and his head was
covered by a black iron halfhelm shaped like a cone. He had bad teeth and a bushy brown beard, but it
was his hooded yellow cloak that drew the eye. Thick and heavy, stained here with grass and there with
blood, frayed along the bottom and patched with deerskin on the right shoulder, the greatcloak gave the
big man the look of some huge yellow bird.
The last of the three was a youth as skinny as his longbow, if not quite as tall. Red-haired and freckled,
he wore a studded brigantine, high boots, fingerless leather gloves, and a quiver on his back. His arrows
were fletched with grey goose feathers, and six of them stood in the ground before him, like a little fence.
The three men looked at her, standing there in the road with her blade in hand. Then the singer idly
plucked a string. "Boy," he said, "put up that sword now, unless you're wanting to be hurt. It's too big for
you, lad, and besides, Anguy here could put three shafts through you before you could hope to reach us."
"He could not," Arya said, "and I'm a girl."
"So you are." The singer bowed. "My pardons."
"You go on down the road. just walk right past here, and you keep on singing, so we'll know where you
are. Go away and leave us be and I won't kill you."
The freckle-faced archer laughed. "Lem, she won't kill us, did you hear? "
"I heard," said Lem, the big soldier with the deep voice.
"Child," said the singer, "put up that sword, and we'll take you to a safe place and get some food in that
belly. There are wolves in these parts, and lions, and worse things. No place for a little girl to be
wandering alone."
"She's not alone." Gendry rode out from behind the cottage wall, and behind him Hot Pie, leading her
horse. In his chainmail shirt with a sword in his hand, Gendry looked almost a man grown, and
dangerous. Hot Pie looked like Hot Pie. "Do like she says, and leave us be," warned Gendry.
"Two and three," the singer counted, "and is that all of you? And horses too, lovely horses. Where did
you steal them?"
"They're ours." Arya watched them carefully. The singer kept distracting her with his talk, but it was the
archer who was the danger. ff he should pull an arrow from the ground ...


"Will you give us your names like honest men?" the singer asked the boys.
"I'm Hot Pie," Hot Pie said at once.
"Aye, and good for you." The man smiled. "It's not every day I meet a lad with such a tasty name. And
what would your friends be called, Mutton Chop and Squab?"
Gendry scowled down from his saddle. "Why should I tell you my name? I haven't heard yours."
"Well, as to that, I'm Tom of Sevenstreams, but Tom Sevenstrings is what they call me, or Tom o'
Sevens. This great lout with the brown teeth is Lem, short for Lemoncloak. It's yellow, you see, and
Lem's a sour sort. And young fellow me lad over there is Anguy, or Archer as we like to call him."
"Now who are you?" demanded Lem, in the deep voice that Arya had heard through the branches of the
willow.
She was not about to give up her true name as easy as that. "Squab, if you want," she said. "I don't
care."
The big man laughed. "A squab with a sword," he said. "Now there's something you don't often see."
"I'm the Bull," said Gendry, taking his lead from Arya. She could not blame him for preferring Bull to
Mutton Chop.
Tom Sevenstrings strummed his harp. "Hot Pie, Squab, and the Bull. Escaped from Lord Bolton's
kitchen, did you?"
"How did you know?" Arya demanded, uneasy.
"You bear his sigil on your chest, little one."
She had forgotten that for an instant. Beneath her cloak, she still wore her fine page's doublet, with the
flayed man of the Dreadfort sewn on her breast. "Don't call me little one!"
"Why not?" said Lem. "You're little enough."
"I'm bigger than I was. I'm not a child." Children didn't kill people, and she had.
"I can see that, Squab. You're none of you children, not if you were Bolton's."
"We never were." Hot Pie never knew when to keep quiet. "We were at Harrenhal before he came,
that's all."
"So you're lion cubs, is that the way of it?" said Tom.
"Not that either. We're nobody's men. Whose men are you?"
Anguy the Archer said, "We're king's men."
Arya frowned. "Which king?"


"King Robert," said Lem, in his yellow cloak.
"That old drunk?" said Gendry scornfully. "He's dead, some boar killed him, everyone knows that."
"Aye, lad," said Tom Sevenstrings, "and more's the pity." He plucked a sad chord from his harp.
Arya didn't think they were king's men at all. They looked more like outlaws, all tattered and ragged.
They didn't even have horses to ride. King's men would have had horses.
But Hot Pie piped up eagerly. "We're looking for Riverrun," he said. "How many days' ride is it, do you
know?"
Arya could have killed him. "You be quiet, or I'll stuff rocks in your big stupid mouth,"
"Riverrun is a long way upstream," said Tom. "A long hungry way. Might be you'd like a hot meal before
you set out? There's an inn not far ahead kept by some friends of ours. We could share some ale and a
bite of bread, instead of fighting one another."
"An inn?" The thought of hot food made Arya's belly rumble, but she didn't trust this Tom. Not everyone
who spoke you friendly was really your friend. "It's near, you say?"
"Two miles upstream," said Tom. "A league at most."
Gendry looked as uncertain as she felt. "What do you mean, friends?" he asked warily.
"Friends. Have you forgotten what friends are?"
"Shama is the innkeep's name," Tom put in. "She has a sharp tongue and a fierce eye, I'll grant you that,
but her heart's a good one, and she's fond of little girls."
"I'm not a little girl," she said angrily. "Who else is there? You said friends,
"Shama's husband, and an orphan boy they took in. They won't harm you. There's ale, if you think
you're old enough. Fresh bread and maybe a bit of meat." Tom glanced toward the cottage. "And
whatever you stole from Old Pate's garden besides."
"We never stole," said Arya.
"Are you Old Pate's daughter, then? A sister? A wife? Tell me no lies, Squab. I buried Old Pate myself,
right there under that willow where you were hiding, and you don't have his look." He drew a sad sound
from his harp. "We've buried many a good man this past year, but we've no wish to bury you, I swear it
on my harp. Archer, show her."
The archer's hand moved quicker than Arya would have believed. His shaft went hissing past her head
within an inch of her ear and buried itself in the trunk of the willow behind her. By then the bowman had a
second arrow notched and drawn. She'd thought she understood what Syrio meant by quick as a snake
and smooth as summer silk, but now she knew she hadn't. The arrow thrummed behind her like a bee.
"You missed," she said.
"More fool you if you think so," said Anguy. "They go where I send them."


"That they do," agreed Lem Lemoncloak.
There were a dozen steps between the archer and the point of her sword. We have no chance, Arya
realized, wishing she had a bow like his, and the skill to use it. Glumly, she lowered her heavy longsword
till the point touched the ground. "We'll come see this inn," she conceded, trying to hide the doubt in her
heart behind bold words. "You walk in front and we'll ride behind, so we can see what you're doing."
Tom Sevenstrings bowed deeply and said, "Before, behind, it makes no matter. Come along, lads, let's
show them the way. Anguy, best pull up those arrows, we won't be needing them here."
Arya sheathed her sword and crossed the road to where her friends sat on their horses, keeping her
distance from the three strangers. "Hot Pie, get those cabbages," she said as she vaulted into her saddle.
"And the carrots too."
For once he did not argue. They set off as she had wanted, walking their horses slowly down the rutted
road a dozen paces behind the three on foot. But before very long, somehow they were riding right on
top of them. Tom Sevenstrings, walked slowly, and liked to strum his woodharp as he went. "Do you
know any songs?" he asked them. "I'd dearly love someone to sing with, that I would. Lem can't carry a
tune, and our longbow lad only knows marcher ballads, every one of them a hundred verses long."
"We sing real songs in the marches," Anguy said mildly.
"Singing is stupid," said Arya. "Singing makes noise. We heard you a long way off. We could have killed
you."
Tom's smile said he did not think so. "There are worse things than dying with a song on your lips."
"If there were wolves hereabouts, we'd know it," groused Lem. "Or lions. These are our woods."
"You never knew we were there," said Gendry.
"Now, lad, you shouldn't be so certain of that," said Tom. "Sometimes a man knows more than he says."
Hot Pie shifted his seat. "I know the song about the bear," he said. "Some of it, anyhow."
Tom ran his fingers down his strings. "Then let's hear it, pie boy." He threw back his head and sang, "A
bear there was, a bear, a bear! All black and brown, and covered with hair . . . "
Hot Pie joined in lustily, even bouncing in his saddle a little on the rhymes. Arya stared at him in
astonishment. He had a good voice and he sang well. He never did anything well, except bake, she
thought to herself.
A small brook flowed into the Trident a little farther on. As they waded across, their singing flushed a
duck from among the reeds. Anguy stopped where he stood, unslung his bow, notched an arrow, and
brought it down. The bird fell in the shallows not far from the bank. Lem took off his yellow cloak and
waded in knee-deep to retrieve it, complaining all the while. "Do you think Shama might have lemons
down in that cellar of hers?" said Anguy to Tom as they watched Lem splash around, cursing. "A Domish
girl once cooked me duck with lemons." He sounded wistful.
Tom and Hot Pie resumed their song on the other side of the brook, with the duck hanging from Lem's
belt beneath his yellow cloak. Somehow the singing made the miles seem shorter. It was not very long at


all until the inn appeared before them, rising from the riverbank where the Trident made a great bend to
the north. Arya squinted at it suspiciously as they neared. It did not look like an outlaws' lair, she had to
admit; it looked friendly, even homey, with its whitewashed upper story and slate roof and the smoke
curling up lazy from its chimney. Stables and other outbuildings surrounded it, and there was an arbor in
back, and apple trees, a small garden. The inn even had its own dock, thrusting out into the river, and ...
"Gendry," she called, her voice low and urgent. "They have a boat. We could sail the rest of the way up
to Riven-un. It would be faster than riding, I think."
He looked dubious. "Did you ever sail a boat?"
"You put up the sail," she said, "and the wind pushes it."
"What if the wind is blowing the wrong way?"
"Then there's oars to row."
"Against the current?" Gendry frowned. "Wouldn't that be slow? And what if the boat tips over and we
fall into the water? It's not our boat anyway, it's the inn's."
We could take it. Arya chewed her lip and said nothing. They dismounted in front of stables. There were
no other horses to be seen, but
Arya noticed fresh manure in many of the stalls. "One of us should watch the horses," she said, wary.
Tom overheard her. "There's no need for that, Squab. Come eat, they'll be safe enough."
"I'll stay," Gendry said, ignoring the singer. "You can come get me after you've had some food."
Nodding, Arya set off after Hot Pie and Lem. Her sword was still in its sheath across her back, and she
kept a hand close to the hilt of the dagger she had stolen from Roose Bolton, in case she didn't like
whatever they found within.
The painted sign above the door showed a picture of some old king on his knees. Inside was the
common room, where a very tall ugly woman with a knobby chin stood with her hands on her hips,
glaring. "Don't just stand there, boy," she snapped. "Or are you a girl? Either one, you're blocking my
door. Get in or get out. Lem, what did I tell you about my floor? You're all mud."
"We shot a duck." Lem held it out like a peace banner.
The woman snatched it from his hand. "Anguy shot a duck, is what you're meaning. Get your boots off,
are you deaf or just stupid?" She turned away. "Husband!" she called loudly. "Get up here, the lads are
back. Husband!"
Up the cellar steps came a man in a stained apron, grumbling. He was a head shorter than the woman,
with a lumpy face and loose yellowish skin that still showed the marks of some pox. "I'm here, woman,
quit your bellowing. What is it now?"
"Hang this," she said, handing him the duck.
Anguy shuffled his feet. "We were thinking we might eat it, Shama. With lemons. If you had some."


"Lemons. And where would we get lemons? Does this look like Dome to you, you freckled fool? Why
don't you hop out back to the lemon trees and pick us a bushel, and some nice olives and pomegranates
too." She shook a finger at him. "Now, I suppose I could cook it with Lem's cloak, if you like, but not till
it's hung for a few days. You'll eat rabbit, or you won't eat. Roast rabbit on a spit would be quickest, if
you've got a hunger. or might be you'd like it stewed, with ale and onions."
Arya could almost taste the rabbit. "We have no coin, but we brought some carrots and cabbages we
could trade you."
"Did you now? And where would they be?"
"Hot Pie, give her the cabbages," Arya said, and he did, though he approached the old woman as
gingerly as if she were Rorge or Biter or Vargo Hoat.
The woman gave the vegetables a close inspection, and the boy a closer one. "Where is this hot pie?"
"Here. Me. It's my name. And she's ... ah ... Squab."
"Not under my roof. I give my diners and my dishes different names, so as to tell them apart. Husband!"
Husband had stepped outside, but at her shout he hurried back. "The duck's hung. What is it now,
woman?"
"Wash these vegetables," she commanded. "The rest of you, sit down while I start the rabbits. The boy
will bring you drink." She looked down her long nose at Arya and Hot Pie. "I am not in the habit of
serving ale to children, but the cider's run out, there's no cows for milk, and the river water tastes of war,
with all the dead men drifting downstream. If I served you a cup of soup full of dead flies, would you
drink it?"
"Arry would," said Hot Pie. "I mean, Squab."
"So would Lem," offered Anguy with a sly smile.
"Never you mind about Lem," Shama said. "It's ale for all." She swept off toward the kitchen.
Anguy and Tom Sevenstrings took the table near the hearth while Lem was hanging his big yellow cloak
on a peg. Hot Pie plopped down heavily on a bench at the table by the door, and Arya wedged herself in
beside him.
Tom unslung his harp. "A lonely inn on a forest road," he sang, slowly picking out a tune to go with the
words. "The innkeep's wife was plain as a toad."
"Shut up with that now or we won't be getting no rabbit," Lem warned him. "You know how she is."
Arya leaned close to Hot Pie. "Can you sail a boat?" she asked. Before he could answer, a thickset boy
of fifteen or sixteen appeared with tankards of ale. Hot Pie took his reverently in both hands, and when
he sipped he smiled wider than Arya had ever seen him smile. "Ale," he whispered, "and rabbit."
"Well, here's to His Grace," Anguy the Archer called out cheerfully, lifting a toast. "Seven save the king!"


"All twelve o'them," Lem Lemoncloak muttered. He drank, and wiped the foam from his mouth with the
back of his hand.
Husband came bustling in through the front door, with an apron full of washed vegetables. "There's
strange horses in the stable," he announced, as if they hadn't known.
"Aye," said Tom, setting the woodharp aside, "and better horses than the three you gave away."
Husband dropped the vegetables on a table, annoyed. "I never gave them away. I sold them for a good
price, and got us a skiff as well. Anyways, you lot were supposed to get them back."
I knew they were outlaws, Arya thought, listening. Her hand went
under the table to touch the hilt of her dagger, and make sure it was still there. If they try to rob us, they'll
be sorry.
"They never came our way," said Lem.
"Well, I sent them. You must have been drunk, or asleep."
"Us? Drunk?" Tom drank a long draught of ale. "Never."
"You could have taken them yourself," Lem told Husband.
"What, with only the boy here? I told you twice, the old woman was up to Lambswold helping that Fem
birth her babe. And like as not it was one o' you planted the bastard in the poor girl's belly." He gave
Tom a sour look. "You, I'd wager, with that harp o' yours, singing all them sad songs just to get poor
Fem out of her smallclothes."
"If a song makes a maid want to slip off her clothes and feel the good warm sun kiss her skin, why, is
that the singer's fault?" asked Tom. "And 'twas Anguy she fancied, besides. 'Can I touch your bow?' I
heard her ask him. 'Ooohh, it feels so smooth and hard. Could I give it a little pull, do you think?"'
Husband snorted. "You and Anguy, makes no matter which. You're as much to blame as me for them
horses. They was three, you know. What can one man do against three?"
"Three," said Lem scornfully, "but one a woman and Vother in chains, you said so yourself."
Husband made a face. "A big woman, dressed like a man. And the one in chains ... I didn't fancy the
look of his eyes."
Anguy smiled over his ale. "When I don't fancy a man's eyes, I put an arrow through one."
Arya remembered the shaft that had brushed by her ear. She wished she knew how to shoot arrows.
Husband was not impressed. "You be quiet when your elders are talking. Drink your ale and mind your
tongue, or I'll have the old woman take a spoon to you."
"My elders talk too much, and I don't need you to tell me to drink my ale." He took a big swallow, to
show that it was so.


Arya did the same. After days of drinking from brooks and puddles, and then the muddy Trident, the ale
tasted as good as the little sips of wine her father used to allow her. A smell was drifting out from the
kitchen that made her mouth water, but her thoughts were still full of that boat. Sailing it will be harder
than stealing it. If we wait until they're all asleep ...
The serving boy reappeared with big round loaves of bread. Arya broke off a chunk hungrily and tore
into it. It was hard to chew, though, sort of thick and lumpy, and burned on the bottom.
Hot Pie made a face as soon as he tasted it. "That's bad bread," he said. "It's burned, and tough
besides."
"It's better when there's stew to sop up," said Lem.
"No, it isn't," said Anguy, "but you're less like to break your teeth."
"You can eat it or go hungry," said Husband. "Do I look like some bloody baker? I'd like to see you
make better."
"I could," said Hot Pie. "It's easy. You kneaded the dough too much, that's why it's so hard to chew."
He took another sip of ale, and began talking lovingly of breads and pies and tarts, all the things he loved.
Arya rolled her eyes.
Tom sat down across from her. "Squab," he said, "or Arry, or whatever your true name might be, this is
for you." He placed a dirty scrap of parchment on the wooden tabletop between them.
She looked at it suspiciously. "What is it?"
"Three golden dragons. We need to buy those horses."
Arya looked at him warily. "They're our horses."
"Meaning you stole them yourselves, is that it? No shame in that, girl. War makes thieves of many honest
folk." Tom tapped the folded parchment with his finger. "I'm paying you a handsome price. More than
any horse is worth, if truth be told.-
Hot Pie grabbed the parchment and unfolded it. "There's no gold," he complained loudly. "It's only
writing."
"Aye," said Tom, "and I'm sorry for that. But after the war, we mean to make that good, you have my
word as a king's man."
Arya pushed back from the table and got to her feet. "You're no king's men, you're robbers."
"If you'd ever met a true robber, you'd know they do not pay, not even in paper. It's not for us we take
your horses, child, it's for the good of the realm, so we can get about more quickly and fight the fights
that need fighting. The king's fights. Would you deny the king?"
They were all watching her; the Archer, big Lem, Husband with his sallow face and shifty eyes. Even
Shama, who stood in the door to the kitchen squinting. They are going to take our horses no matter what
I say, she realized. We'll need to walk to Riverrun, unless... "We don't want paper." Arya slapped the
parchment out of Hot Pie's hand. "You can have our horses for that boat outside. But only if you show us


how to work it."
Tom Sevenstrings stared at her a moment, and then his wide homely mouth quirked into a rueful grin. He
laughed aloud. Anguy joined in, and then they were all laughing, Lem Lemoncloak, Shama and Husband,
even the serving boy, who had stepped out from behind the casks with a crossbow under one arm. Arya
wanted to scream at them, but instead she started to smile ...
"Riders!" Gendry's shout was shrill with alarm. The door burst open and there he was. "Soldiers," he
panted. "Coming down the river road, a dozen of them."
Hot Pie leapt up, knocking over his tankard, but Tom and the others were unpertubed. "There's no
cause for spilling good ale on my floor," said Shama. "Sit back down and calm yourself, boy, there's
rabbit coming. You too, girl. Whatever harm's been done you, it's over and it's done and you're with
king's men now. We'll keep you safe as best we can."
Arya's only answer was to reach over her shoulder for her sword, but before she had it halfway drawn
Lem grabbed her wrist. "We'll have no more of that, now." He twisted her arm until her hand opened.
His fingers were hard with callus and fearsomely strong. Again! Arya thought. It's happening again, like it
happened in the village, with Chiswyck and Raff and the Mountain That Rides. They were going to steal
her sword and turn her back into a mouse. Her free hand closed around her tankard, and she swung it at
Lem's face. The ale sloshed over the rim and splashed into his eyes, and she heard his nose break and
saw the spurt of blood. When he roared his hands went to his face, and she was free. "Run!" she
screamed, bolting.
But Lem was on her again at once, with his long legs that made one of his steps equal to three of hers.
She twisted and kicked, but he yanked her off her feet effortlessly and held her dangling while the blood
ran down his face.
"Stop it, you little fool," he shouted, shaking her back and forth. "Stop it now!" Gendry moved to help
her, until Tom Sevenstrings stepped in front of him with a dagger.
By then it was too late to flee. She could hear horses outside, and the sound of men's voices. A moment
later a man came swaggering through the open door, a Tyroshi even bigger than Lem with a great thick
beard, bright green at the ends but growing out grey. Behind came a pair of crossbowmen helping a
wounded man between them, and then others ...
A more ragged band Arya had never seen, but there was nothing ragged about the swords, axes, and
bows they carried. One or two gave her curious glances as they entered, but no one said a word. A
one-eyed man in a rusty pothelm sniffed the air and grinned, while an archer with a head of stiff yellow
hair was shouting for ale. After them came a spearman in a lioncrested helm, an older man with a limp, a
Braavosi sellsword, a ...
"Harwin?" Arya whispered. It was! Under the beard and the tangled hair was the face of Hullen's son,
who used to lead her pony around the yard, ride at quintain with Jon and Robb, and drink too much on
feast days. He was thinner, harder somehow, and at Winterfell he had never worn a beard, but it was him
- her father's man. "Harwin!" Squirming, she threw herself forward, trying to wrench free of Lem's iron
grip. "It's me," she shouted, "Harwin, it's me, don't you know me, don't you?" The tears came, and she
found herself weeping like a baby, just like some stupid little girl. "Harwin, it's me!"
Harwin's eyes went from her face to the flayed man on her doublet. "How do you know me?" he said,
frowning suspiciously. "The flayed man ... who are you, some serving boy to Lord Leech?"


For a moment she did not know how to answer. She'd had so many names. Had she only dreamed
Arya Stark? "I'm a girl," she sniffed. "I was Lord Bolton's cupbearer but he was going to leave me for the
goat, so I ran off with Gendry and Hot Pie. You have to know me! You used to lead my pony, when I
was little."
His eyes went wide. "Gods be good," he said in a choked voice. "Arya Underfoot? Lem, let go of her."
"She broke my nose." Lem dumped her unceremoniously to the floor. "Who in seven hells is she
supposed to be?"
"The Hand's daughter." Harwin went to one knee before her. "Arya Stark, of Winterfell."
Chapter 14
CATELYN
Robb, she knew, the moment she heard the kennels erupt.
Her son had returned to Riverrun, and Grey Wind with him. Only the scent of the great grey direwolf
could send the hounds into such a frenzy of baying and barking. He will come to me, she knew. Edmure
had not returned after his first visit, preferring to spend his days with Marq Piper and Patrek Mallister,
listening to Rymund the Rhymer's verses about the battle at the Stone Mill. Robb is not Edmure, though.
Robb will see me.
it had been raining for days now, a cold grey downpour that well suited Catelyn's mood. Her father was
growing weaker and more delirious with every passing day, waking only to mutter, "Tansy," and beg
forgiveness. Edmure shunned her, and Ser Desmond Grell still denied her freedom of the castle, however
unhappy it seemed to make him. Only the return of Ser Robin Ryger and his men, footweary and
drenched to the bone, served to lighten her spirits. They had walked back, it seemed. Somehow the
Kingslayer had contrived to sink their galley and escape, Maester Vyman confided. Catelyn asked if she
might speak with Ser Robin to learn more of what had happened, but that was refused her.
Something else was wrong as well. On the day her brother returned, a few hours after their argument,
she had heard angry voices from the yard below. When she climbed to the roof to see, there were knots
of men gathered across the castle beside the main gate. Horses were being led from the stables, saddled
and bridled, and there was shouting, though Catelyn was too far away to make out the words. one of
Robb's white banners lay on the ground, and one of the knights turned his horse and
trampled over the direwolf as he spurred toward the gate. Several others did the same. Those are men
who fought with Edmure on the fords, she thought. What could have made them so angry? Has my
brother slighted them somehow, given them some insult? She thought she recognized Ser Perwyn Frey,
who had traveled with her to Bitterbridge and Storm's End and back, and his bastard half brother Martyn
Rivers as well, but from this vantage it was hard to be certain. Close to forty men poured out through the
castle gates, to what end she did not know.
They did not come back. Nor would Maester Vyman tell her who they had been, where they had gone,


or what had made them so angry. "I am here to see to your father, and only that, my lady," he said. "Your
brother will soon be Lord of Riverrun. What he wishes you to know, he must tell you."
But now Robb was returned from the west, returned in triumph. He will forgive me, Catelyn told herself.
He must forgive me, he is my own son, and Arya and Sansa are as much his blood as mine. He will free
me from these rooms and then I will know what has happened.
By the time Ser Desmond came for her, she had bathed and dressed and combed out her auburn hair.
"King Robb has returned from the west, my lady," the knight said, "and commands that you attend him in
the Great Hall."
It was the moment she had dreamt of and dreaded. Have I lost two sons, or three? She would know
soon enough.
The hall was crowded when they entered. Every eye was on the dais, but Catelyn knew their backs:
Lady Mormont's patched ringmail, the Greatjon and his son looming above every other head in the hall,
Lord Jason Mallister white-haired with his winged helm in the crook of his arm, Tytos Blackwood in his
magnificent raven-feather cloak ... Half of them will want to hang me now. The other half may only turn
their eyes away. She had the uneasy feeling that someone was missing, too.
Robb stood on the dais. He is a boy no longer, she realized with a pang. He is sixteen now, a man
grown. fust look at him. War had melted all the softness from his face and left him hard and lean. He had
shaved his beard away, but his auburn hair fell uncut to his shoulders. The recent rains had rusted his mail
and left brown stains on the white of his cloak and surcoat. Or perhaps the stains were blood. On his
head was the sword crown they had fashioned him of bronze and iron. He bears it more comfortably
now He bears it like a king.
Edmure stood below the crowded dais, head bowed modestly as Robb praised his victory. ". . . fell at
the Stone Mill shall never be forgotten. Small wonder Lord Tywin ran off to fight Stannis. He'd had his fill
of northmen and rivermen both." That brought laughter and approving shouts, but Robb raised a hand for
quiet. "Make no mistake, though. The
Lannisters will march again, and there will be other battles to win before the kingdom is secure."
The Greatjon roared out, "King in the North!" and thrust a mailed fist into the air. The river lords
answered with a shout of "King of the Trident!" The hall grew thunderous with pounding fists and
stamping feet.
Only a few noted Catelyn and Ser Desmond amidst the tumult, but they elbowed their fellows, and
slowly a hush grew around her. She held her head high and ignored the eyes. Let them think what they
will. It is Robb's judgment that matters.
The sight of Ser Brynden Tully's craggy face on the dais gave her comfort. A boy she did not know
seemed to be acting as Robb's squire. Behind him stood a young knight in a sand-colored surcoat
blazoned with seashells, and an older one who wore three black pepperpots on a saffron bend, across a
field of green and silver stripes. Between them were a handsome older lady and a pretty maid who
looked to be her daughter. There was another girl as well, near Sansa's age. The seashells were the sigil
of some lesser house, Catelyn knew; the older man's she did not recognize. Prisoners? Why would Robb
bring captives onto the dais?
Utherydes Wayn banged his staff on the floor as Ser Desmond escorted her forward. If Robb looks at


me as Edmure did, I do not know what I will do. But it seemed to her that it was not anger she saw in
her son's eyes, but something else ... apprehension, perhaps? No, that made no sense. What should he
fear? He was the Young Wolf, King of the Trident and the North.
Her uncle was the first to greet her. As black a fish as ever, Ser Brynden had no care for what others
might think. He leapt off the dais and pulled Catelyn into his arms. When he said, "It is good to see you
home, Cat," she had to struggle to keep her composure. "And you," she whispered.
"Mother."
Catelyn looked up at her tall kingly son. "Your Grace, I have prayed for your safe return. I had heard
you were wounded."
"I took an arrow through the arm while storming the Crag," he said. "It's healed well, though. I had the
best of care."
"The gods are good, then." Catelyn took a deep breath. Say it. It cannot be avoided. "They will have
told you what I did. Did they tell you my reasons?"
"For the girls."
"I had five children. Now I have three."
"Aye, my lady." Lord Rickard Karstark pushed past the Greatjon, like some grim specter with his black
mail and long ragged grey beard, his narrow face pinched and cold. "And I have one son, who once had
three. You have robbed me of my vengeance."
Catelyn faced him calmly. "Lord Rickard, the Kingslayer's dying would
not have bought life for your children. His living may buy life for mine." The lord was unappeased. "Jaime
Lannister has played you for a fool. You've bought a bag of empty words, no more. My Torrhen and my
Eddard deserved better of you."
"Leave off, Karstark," rumbled the Greatjon, crossing his huge arms against his chest. "It was a mother's
folly. Women are made that way."
"A mother's folly?" Lord Karstark rounded on Lord Umber. "I name it treason."
"Enough." For just an instant Robb sounded more like Brandon than his father. "No man calls my lady of
Winterfell a traitor in my hearing, Lord Rickard." When he turned to Catelyn, his voice softened. "If I
could wish the Kingslayer back in chains I would. You freed him without my knowledge or consent ...
but what you did, I know you did for love. For Arya and Sansa, and out of grief for Bran and Rickon.
Love's not always wise, I've learned. It can lead us to great folly, but we follow our hearts ... wherever
they take us. Don't we, Mother?"
Is that what I did? "If my heart led me into folly, I would gladly make whatever amends I can to Lord
Karstark and yourself."
Lord Rickard's face was implacable. "Will your amends warm Torrhen and Eddard in the cold graves
where the Kingslayer laid them?" He shouldered between the Greatjon and Maege Mormont and left the
hall.


Robb made no move to detain him. "Forgive him, Mother."
"If you will forgive me."
"I have. I know what it is to love so greatly you can think of nothing else."
Catelyn bowed her head. "Thank you." I have not lost this child, at least.
"We must talk," Robb went on. "You and my uncles. Of this and ... other things. Steward, call an end."
Utherydes Wayn slammed his staff on the floor and shouted the dismissal, and river lords and
northerners alike moved toward the doors. It was only then that Catelyn realized what was amiss. The
wolf. The wolf is not here. Where is Grey Wind? She knew the direwolf had returned with Robb, she
had heard the dogs, but he was not in the hall, not at her son's side where he belonged.
Before she could think to question Robb, however, she found herself surrounded by a circle of
well-wishers. Lady Mormont took her hand and said, "My lady, if Cersei Lannister held two of my
daughters, I would have done the same." The Greation, no respecter of proprieties, lifted her off her feet
and squeezed her arms with his huge hairy hands. "Your wolf pup mauled the Kingslayer once, he'll do it
again if need be." Galbart Glover and Lord Jason Mallister were cooler, and Jonos Bracken almost icy,
but their words were courteous enough. Her brother was the last to
approach her. "I pray for your girls as well, Cat. I hope you do not doubt that. "
"Of course not." She kissed him. "I love you for it."
When all the words were done, the Great Hall of Riverrun was empty save for Robb, the three Tullys,
and the six strangers Catelyn could not place. She eyed them curiously. "My lady, sers, are you new to
my son's cause? "
"New," said the younger knight, him of the seashells, "but fierce in our courage and firm in our loyalties,
as I hope to prove to you, my lady."
Robb looked uncomfortable. "Mother, " he said, "may I present the Lady Sybell, the wife of Lord
Gawen Westerling of the Crag." The older woman came forward with solemn mien. "Her husband was
one of those we took captive in the Whispering Wood."
Westerling, yes, Catelyn thought. Their banner is six seashells, white on sand. A minor house sworn to
the Lannisters.
Robb beckoned the other strangers forward, each in turn. "Ser Rolph Spicer, Lady Sybell's brother. He
was castellan at the Crag when we took it." The pepperpot knight inclined his head. A square-built man
with a broken nose and a close-cropped grey beard, he looked doughty enough. "The children of Lord
Gawen and Lady Sybell. Ser Raynald Westerling." The seashell knight smiled beneath a bushy mustache.
Young, lean, rough-hewn, he had good teeth and a thick mop of chestnut hair. "Elenya." The little girl did
a quick curtsy. "Rollarn Westerling, my squire." The boy started to kneel, saw no one else was kneeling,
and bowed instead.
"The honor is mine," Catelyn said. Can Robb have won the Crag's allegiance? If so, it was no wonder
the Westerlings were with him. Casterly Rock did not suffer such betrayals gently. Not since Tywin


Lannister had been old enough to go to war ...
The maid came forward last, and very shy. Robb took her hand. "Mother," he said, "I have the great
honor to present you the Lady Jeyne Westerling. Lord Gawen's elder daughter, and my ... ah ... my lady
wife."
The first thought that flew across Catelyn's mind was, No, that cannot be, you are only a child.
The second was, And besides, you have pledged another.
The third was, Mother have mercy, Robb, what have you done?
Only then came her belated remembrance. Follies done for love? He has bagged me neat as a hare in a
snare. I seem to have already forgiven him. Mixed with her annoyance was a rueful admiration; the scene
had been staged with the cunning worthy of a master mummer ... or a king. Catelyn saw no choice but to
take Jeyne Westerling's hands. "I have a new daughter," she said, more stiffly than she'd intended. She
kissed the terrified girl on both cheeks. "Be welcome to our hall and hearth."
"Thank you, my lady. I shall be a good and true wife to Robb, I swear. And as wise a queen as I can."
Queen. Yes, this pretty little girl is a queen, I must remember that. She was pretty, undeniably, with her
chestnut curls and heart-shaped face, and that shy smile. Slender, but with good hips, Catelyn noted. She
should have no trouble bearing children, at least.
Lady Sybell took a hand before any more was said. "We are honored to be joined to House Stark, my
lady, but we are also very weary. We have come a long way in a short time. Perhaps we might retire to
our chambers, so you may visit with your son?"
"That would be best." Robb kissed his Jeyne. "The steward will find you suitable accommodations."
"I'll take you to him," Ser Edmure Tully volunteered.
"You are most kind," said Lady Sybell.
"Must I go too?" asked the boy, Rollam. "I'm your squire."
Robb laughed. "But I'm not in need of squiring just now."
"Oh."
"His Grace has gotten along for sixteen years without you, Rollam," said Ser Raynald of the seashells.
"He will survive a few hours more, I think." Taking his little brother firmly by the hand, he walked him
from the hall.
"Your wife is lovely," Catelyn said when they were out of earshot, "and the Westerlings seem worthy ...
though Lord Gawen is Tywin Lannister's sworn man, is he not?"
"Yes. Jason Mallister captured him in the Whispering Wood and has been holding him at Seagard for
ransom. Of course I'll free him now, though he may not wish to join me. We wed without his consent, I
fear, and this marriage puts him in dire peril. The Crag is not strong. For love of me, Jeyne may lose all."


"And you," she said softly, "have lost the Freys."
His wince told all. She understood the angry voices now, why Perwyn Frey and Martyn Rivers had left
in such haste, trampling Robb's banner into the ground as they went.
"Dare I ask how many swords come with your bride, Robb?"
"Fifty. A dozen knights." His voice was glum, as well it might be. When the marriage contract had been
made at the Twins, old Lord Walder Frey had sent Robb off with a thousand mounted knights and near
three thousand foot. "Jeyne is bright as well as beautiful. And kind as well. She has a gentle heart."
It is swords you need, not gentle hearts. How could you do this, Robb? How could you be so heedless,
so stupid? How could you be so ... so very ... young. Reproaches would not serve here, however. All
she said was, "Tell me how this came to be."
"I took her castle and she took my heart.,' Robb smiled. "The Crag was weakly garrisoned, so we took
it by storm one night. Black Walder and the Smalljon led scaling parties over the walls, while I broke the
main gate with a ram. I took an arrow in the arm just before Ser Rolph yielded us the castle. It seemed
nothing at first, but it festered. Jeyne had me taken to her own bed, and she nursed me until the fever
passed. And she was with me when the Greatjon brought me the news of ... of Winterfell. Bran and
Rickon." He seemed to have trouble saying his brothers' names. "That night, she ... she comforted me,
Mother."
Catelyn did not need to be told what sort of comfort Jeyne Westerling had offered her son. "And you
wed her the next day."
He looked her in the eyes, proud and miserable all at once. "It was the only honorable thing to do. She's
gentle and sweet, Mother, she will make me a good wife."
"Perhaps. That will not appease Lord Frey."
"I know," her son said, stricken. "I've made a botch of everything but the battles, haven't I? I thought the
battles would be the hard part, but ... if I had listened to you and kept Theon as my hostage, I'd still rule
the north, and Bran and Rickon would be alive and safe in Winterfell."
"Perhaps. Or not. Lord Balon might still have chanced war. The last time he reached for a crown, it cost
him two sons. He might have thought it a bargain to lose only one this time." She touched his arm. "What
happened with the Freys, after you wed?"
Robb shook his head. "With Ser Stevron, I might have been able to make amends, but Ser Ryman is
dull-witted as a stone, and Black Walder ... that one was not named for the color of his beard, I promise
you. He went so far as to say that his sisters would not be loath to wed a widower. I would have killed
him for that if Jeyne had not begged me to be merciful."
"You have done House Frey a grievous insult, Robb."
"I never meant to. Ser Stevron died for me, and Olyvar was as loyal a squire as any king could want. He
asked to stay with me, but Ser Ryman took him with the rest. All their strength. The Greatjon urged me
to attack them . . . "
"Fighting your own in the midst of your enemies?" she said. "It would have been the end of you."


"Yes. I thought perhaps we could arrange other matches for Lord Walder's daughters. Ser Wendel
Manderly has offered to take one, and the Greatjon tells me his uncles wish to wed again. If Lord
Walder will be reasonable - "
"He is not reasonable," said Catelyn. "He is proud, and prickly to a fault. You know that. He wanted to
be grandfather to a king. You will not appease him with the offer of two hoary old brigands and the
second
son of the fattest man in the Seven Kingdoms. Not only have you broken your oath, but you've slighted
the honor of the Twins by choosing a bride from a lesser house."
Robb bristled at that. "The Westerlings are better blood than the Freys. They're an ancient line,
descended from the First Men. The Kings of the Rock sometimes wed Westerlings before the Conquest,
and there was another Jeyne Westerling who was queen to King Maegor three hundred years ago."
"All of which will only salt Lord Walder's wounds. It has always rankled him that older houses look
down on the Freys as upstarts. This insult is not the first he's borne, to hear him tell it. Jon Arryn was
disinclined to foster his grandsons, and my father refused the offer of one of his daughters for Edmure."
She inclined her head toward her brother as he rejoined them.
"Your Grace," Brynden Blackflsh said, "perhaps we had best continue this in private."
"Yes." Robb sounded tired. "I would kill for a cup of wine. The audience chamber, I think."
As they started up the steps, Catelyn asked the question that had been troubling her since she entered
the hall. "Robb, where is Grey Wind?"
"In the yard, with a haunch of mutton. I told the kennelmaster to see that he was fed."
"You always kept him with you before."
"A hall is no place for a wolf. He gets restless, you've seen. Growling and snapping. I should never have
taken him into battle with me. He's killed too many men to fear them now. Jeyne's anxious around him,
and he terrifies her mother."
And there's the heart of it, Catelyn thought. "He is part of you, Robb. To fear him is to fear you."
"I am not a wolf, no matter what they call me." Robb sounded cross. "Grey Wind killed a man at the
Crag, another at Ashemark, and six or seven at Oxcross. If you had seen - "
"I saw Bran's wolf tear out a man's throat at Winterfell," she said sharply, "and loved him for it."
"That's different. The man at the Crag was a knight Jeyne had known all her life. You can't blame her for
being afraid. Grey Wind doesn't like her uncle either. He bares his teeth every time Ser Rolph comes
near him."
A chill went through her. "Send Ser Rolph away. At once."
"Where? Back to the Crag, so the Lannisters can mount his head on a spike? Jeyne loves him. He's her
uncle, and a fair knight besides. I need more men like Rolph Spicer, not fewer. I am not going to banish


him just because my wolf doesn't seem to like the way he smells."
"Robb." She stopped and held his arm. "I told you once to keep Theon Greyjoy close, and you did not
listen. Listen now. Send this man away. I am not saying you must banish him. Find some task that
requires a man of courage, some honorable duty, what it is matters not ... but do not keep him near you."
He frowned. "Should I have Grey Wind sniff all my knights? There might be others whose smell he
mislikes."
"Any man Grey Wind mislikes is a man I do not want close to you. These wolves are more than wolves,
Robb. You must know that. I think perhaps the gods sent them to us. Your father's gods, the old gods of
the north. Five wolf pups, Robb, five for five Stark children."
"Six," said Robb. "There was a wolf for Jon as well. I found them, remember? I know how many there
were and where they came from. I used to think the same as you, that the wolves were our guardians,
our protectors, until. . ."
"Until?" she prompted.
Robb's mouth tightened. until they told me that Theon had murdered Bran and Rickon. Small good their
wolves did them. I am no longer a boy, Mother. I'm a king, and I can protect myself." He sighed. "I will
find some duty for Ser Rolph, some pretext to send him away. Not because of his smell, but to ease your
mind. You have suffered enough."
Relieved, Catelyn kissed him lightly on the cheek before the others could come around the turn of the
stair, and for a moment he was her boy again, and not her king.
Lord Hoster's private audience chamber was a small room above the Great Hall, better suited to
intimate discussions. Robb took the high seat, removed his crown, and set it on the floor beside him as
Catelyn rang for wine. Edmure was filling his uncle's ear with the whole story of the fight at the Stone
Mill. it was only after the servants had come and gone that the Blackfish cleared his throat and said, "I
think we've all heard sufficient of your boasting, Nephew."
Edmure was taken aback. "Boasting? What do you mean?"
"I mean," said the Blackfish, "that you owe His Grace your thanks for his forbearance. He played out
that mummer's farce in the Great Hall so as not to shame you before your own people. Had it been me I
would have flayed you for your stupidity rather than praising this folly of the fords."
"Good men died to defend those fords, Uncle." Edmure sounded outraged. "What, is no one to win
victories but the Young Wolf? Did I steal some glory meant for you, Robb?"
"Your Grace," Robb corrected, icy. "You took me for your king, Uncle. or have you forgotten that as
well?"
The Blackfish said, "You were commanded to hold Riverrun, Edmure, no more."
"I held Riverrun, and I bloodied Lord Tywin's nose
"So you did," said Robb. "But a bloody nose won't win the war, will it? Did you ever think to ask
yourself why we remained in the west so long after Oxcross? You knew I did not have enough men to


threaten Lannisport or Casterly Rock."
"Why ... there were other castles ... gold, cattle..."
"You think we stayed for plunder?" Robb was incredulous. "Uncle, I wanted Lord Tywin to come west."
"We were all horsed," Ser Brynden said. "The Lannister host was mainly foot. We planned to run Lord
Tywin a merry chase up and down the coast, then slip behind him to take up a strong defensive position
athwart the gold road, at a place my scouts had found where the ground would have been greatly in our
favor. If he had come at us there, he would have paid a grievous price. But if he did not attack, he would
have been trapped in the west, a thousand leagues from where he needed to be. All the while we would
have lived off his land, instead of him living off ours."
"Lord Stannis was about to fall upon King's Landing," Robb said. "He might have rid us of Joffrey, the
queen, and the Imp in one red stroke. Then we might have been able to make a peace."
Edmure looked from uncle to nephew. "You never told me."
"I told you to hold Riverrun, " said Robb. "What part of that command did you fail to comprehend?"
"When you stopped Lord Tywin on the Red Fork," said the Blackfish, liyou delayed him just long
enough for riders out of Bitterbridge to reach him with word of what was happening to the east. Lord
Tywin turned his host at once, joined up with Matthis Rowan and Randyll Tarly near the headwaters of
the Blackwater, and made a forced march to Tumbler's Falls, where he found Mace Tyrell and two of his
sons waiting with a huge host and a fleet of barges. They floated down the river, disembarked half a day's
ride from the city, and took Stannis in the rear."
Catelyn remembered King Renly's court, as she had seen it at Bitterbridge. A thousand golden roses
streaming in the wind, Queen Man gaery's shy smile and soft words, her brother the Knight of Flowers
with the bloody linen around his temples. If you had to fall into a woman's arms, my son, why couldn't
they have been Margaery Tyrell's? The wealth and power of Highgarden could have made all the
difference in the fighting yet to come. And perhaps Grey Wind would have liked the smell of her as well.
Edmure looked ill. "I never meant ... never, Robb, you must let me make amends. I will lead the van in
the next battle!"
For amends, Brother? Or for glory? Catelyn wondered.
"The next battle," Robb said. "Well, that will be soon enough. Once Joffrey is wed, the Lannisters will
take the fleld against me once more, I don't doubt, and this time the Tyrells will march beside them. And I
may need to fight the Freys as well, if Black Walder has his way. . . -
"So long as Theon Greyjoy sits in your father's seat with your brothers' blood on his hands, these other
foes must wait," Catelyn told her son. "Your first duty is to defend your own people, win back Winterfell,
and hang Theon in a crow's cage to die slowly. Or else put off that crown for good, Robb, for men will
know that you are no true king at all."
From the way Robb looked at her, she could tell that it had been a long while since anyone had dared
speak to him so bluntly. "When they told me Winterfell had fallen, I wanted to go north at once," he said,
with a hint of defensiveness. "I wanted to free Bran and Rickon, but I thought ... I never dreamed that
Theon could harm them, truly. If I had..."


"It is too late for ifs, and too late for rescues," Catelyn said. "All that remains is vengeance."
"The last word we had from the north, Ser Rodrik had defeated a force of ironmen near Torrhen's
Square, and was assembling a host at Castle Cerwyn to retake Winterfell ' " said Robb. "By now he may
have done it. There has been no news for a long while. And what of the Trident, if I turn north? I can't
ask the river lords to abandon their own people."
"No," said Catelyn. "Leave them to guard their own, and win back the north with northmen."
"How will you get the northmen to the north?" her brother Edmure asked. "The ironmen control the
sunset sea. The Greyjoys hold Moat Cailin as well. No army has ever taken Moat Cailin from the south.
Even to march against it is madness. We could be trapped on the causeway, with the ironborn before us
and angry Freys at our backs."
"We must win back the Freys," said Robb. "With them, we still have some chance of success, however
small. Without them, I see no hope. I am willing to give Lord Walder whatever he requires ... apologies,
honors, lands, gold ... there must be something that would soothe his pride..."
"Not something," said Catelyn. "Someone."
Chapter 15
JON
"Big enough for you?" Snowflakes speckled Tormund's broad face, melting in his hair and beard.
'The giants swayed slowly atop the mammoths as they rode past two by two. Jon's garron shied,
frightened by such strangeness, but whether it was the mammoths or their riders that scared him it was
hard to say. Even Ghost backed off a step, baring his teeth in a silent snarl. The direwolf was big, but the
mammoths were a deal bigger, and there were many and more of them.
Jon took the horse in hand and held him still, so he could count the giants emerging from the blowing
snow and pale mists that swirled along the Milkwater. He was well beyond fifty when Tormund said
something and he lost the count. There must be hundreds. No matter how many went past, they just
seemed to keep coming.
In Old Nan's stories, giants were outsized men who lived in colossal castles, fought with huge swords,
and walked about in boots a boy could hide in. These were something else, more bearlike than human,
and as wooly as the mammoths they rode. Seated, it was hard to say how big they truly were, Ten feet
tall maybe, or twelve, Jon thought. Maybe fourteen, but no taller. Their sloping chests might have passed
for those of men, but their arms hung down too far, and their lower torsos looked half again as wide as
their upper. Their legs were shorter than their arms, but very thick, and they wore no boots at all; their
feet were broad splayed things, hard and horny and black. Neckless, their huge heavy heads thrust
forward from between their shoulder blades, and their faces were squashed and brutal. Rats' eyes no
larger than beads were almost lost


within folds of horny flesh, but they snuffled constantly, smelling as much as they saw.
They're not wearing skins, Jon realized. That's hair. Shaggy pelts covered their bodies, thick below the
waist, sparser above. The stink that came off them was choking, but perhaps that was the mammoths.
And foramun blew the Horn of Winter, and woke giants from the earth. He looked for great swords ten
feet long, but saw only clubs. Most were just the limbs of dead trees, some still trailing shattered
branches. A few had stone balls lashed to the ends to make colossal mauls. The song never says if the
horn can put them back to sleep.
One of the giants coming up on them looked older than the rest. His pelt was grey and streaked with
white, and the mammoth he rode, larger than any of the others, was grey and white as well. Tormund
shouted something up to him as he passed, harsh clanging words in a tongue that Jon did not
comprehend. The giant's lips split apart to reveal a mouth full of huge square teeth, and he made a sound
half belch and half rumble. After a moment Jon realized he was laughing. The mammoth turned its
massive head to regard the two of them briefly, one huge tusk passing over the top of Jon's head as the
beast lumbered by, leaving huge footprints in the soft mud and fresh snow along the river. The giant
shouted down something in the same coarse tongue that Tormund had used.
"Was that their king?" asked Jon.
"Giants have no kings, no more'n mammoths do, nor snow bears, nor the great whales o' the grey sea.
That was Mag Mar Tun Doh Weg. Mag the Mighty. You can kneel to him if you like, he won't mind. I
know your kneeler's knees must be itching, for want of some king to bend to. Watch out he don't step on
you, though. Giants have bad eyes, and might be he wouldn't see some little crow all the way down there
by his feet."
"What did you say to him? Was that the Old Tongue?"
"Aye. I asked him if that was his father he was forking, they looked so much alike, except his father had
a better smell."
"And what did he say to you?"
Tormund Thunderfist cracked a gap-toothed smile. "He asked me if that was my daughter riding there
beside me, with her smooth pink cheeks." The wildling shook snow from his arm and turned his horse
about. "it may be he never saw a man without a beard before. Come, we start back. Mance grows sore
wroth when I'm not found in my accustomed place."
Jon wheeled and followed Tormund back toward the head of the column, his new cloak hanging heavy
from his shoulders. It was made of unwashed sheepskins, worn fleece side in, as the wildlings suggested.
It kept the snow off well enough, and at night it was good and warm, but he kept his black cloak as well,
folded up beneath his saddle. "Is it true
you killed a giant once?" he asked Tormund as they rode. Ghost loped silently beside them, leaving paw
prints in the new-fallen snow.
"Now why would you doubt a mighty man like me? It was winter and I was half a boy, and stupid the
way boys are. I went too far and my horse died and then a storm caught me. A true storm, not no little
dusting such as this. Har! I knew I'd freeze to death before it broke. So I found me a sleeping giant, cut
open her belly, and crawled up right inside her. Kept me warm enough, she did, but the stink near did for
me. The worst thing was, she woke up when the spring come and took me for her babe. Suckled me for


three whole moons before I could get away. Har! There's times I miss the taste o' giant's milk, though."
"If she nursed you, you couldn't have killed her."
"I never did, but see you don't go spreading that about. Tormund Giantsbane has a better ring to it than
Tormund Giantsbabe, and that's the honest truth o' it."
"So how did you come by your other names?" Jon asked. "Mance called you the Horn-Blower, didn't
he? Mead-king of Ruddy Hall, Husband to Bears, Father to Hosts?" It was the horn blowing he
particularly wanted to hear about, but he dared not ask too plainly. And foramun blew the Horn of
Winter, and woke giants from the earth. Is that where they had come from, them and their mammoths?
Had Mance Rayder found the Horn of Joramun, and given it to Tormund Thunderfist to blow?
"Are all crows so curious?" asked Tormund. "Well, here's a tale for you. It were another winter, colder
even than the one I spent inside that giant, and snowing day and night, snowflakes as big as your head,
not these little things. It snowed so hard the whole village was half buried. I was in me Ruddy Hall, with
only a cask o' mead to keep me company and nothing to do but drink it. The more I drank the more I
got to thinking about this woman lived close by, a fine strong woman with the biggest pair of teats you
ever saw. She had a temper on her, that one, but oh, she could be warm too, and in the deep of winter a
man needs his warmth.
"The more I drank the more I thought about her, and the more I thought the harder me member got, till I
couldn't suffer it no more. Fool that I was, I bundled meself up in furs from head to heels, wrapped a
winding wool around me face, and set off to find her. The snow was coming down so hard I got turned
around once or twice, and the wind blew right through me and froze me bones, but finally I come on her,
all bundled up like I was.
"The woman had a terrible temper, and she put up quite the fight when I laid hands on her. It was all I
could do to carry her home and get her out o' them furs, but when I did, oh, she was hotter even than I
remembered, and we had a fine old time, and then I went to sleep. Next
morning when I woke the snow had stopped and the sun was shining, but I was in no fit state to enjoy it.
All ripped and torn I was, and half me member bit right off, and there on me floor was a she-bear's pelt.
And soon enough the free folk were telling tales o' this bald bear seen in the woods, with the queerest
pair o' cubs behind her. Har! " He slapped a meaty thigh. "Would that I could find her again. She was
fine to lay with, that bear. Never was a woman gave me such a fight, nor such strong sons neither."
"'What could you do if you did find her?" Jon asked, smiling. "You said she bit your member off."
"Only half. And half me member is twice as long as any other man's." Tormund snorted. "Now as to you
... is it true they cut your members off when they take you for the Wall?"
"No," Jon said, affronted.
"I think it must be true. Else why refuse Ygritte? She'd hardly give you any fight at all, seems to me. The
girl wants you in her, that's plain enough to see."
Too bloody plain, thought Jon, and it seems that half the column has seen it. He studied the falling snow
so Tormund might not see him redden. I am a man of the Night's Watch, he reminded himself. So why
did he feel like some blushing maid?


He spent most of his days in Ygritte's company, and most nights as well. Mance Rayder had not been
blind to Rattleshirt's mistrust of the "crow-come-over," so after he had given Jon his new sheepskin cloak
he had suggested that he might want to ride with Tormund Giantsbane instead. Jon had happily agreed,
and the very next day Ygritte and Longspear Ryk left Rattleshirt's band for Tormund's as well. "Free folk
ride with who they want," the girl told him, "and we had a bellyful of Bag o' Bones."
Every night when they made camp, Ygritte threw her sleeping skins down beside his own, no matter if he
was near the fire or well away from it. Once he woke to find her nestled against him, her arm across his
chest. He lay listening to her breathe for a long time, trying to ignore the tension in his groin. Rangers
often shared skins for warmth, but warmth was not all Ygritte wanted, he suspected. After that he had
taken to using Ghost to keep her away. Old Nan used to tell stories about knights and their ladies who
would sleep in a single bed with a blade between them for honor's sake, but he thought this must be the
first time where a direwolf took the place of the sword.
Even then, Ygritte persisted. The day before last, Jon had made the mistake of wishing he had hot water
for a bath. "Cold is better," she had said at once, "if you've got someone to warm you up after. The
river's only part ice yet, go on."
Jon laughed. "You'd freeze me to death."
"Are all crows afraid of gooseprickles? A little ice won't kill you. I'll jump in with you tprove it so."
"And ride the rest of the day with wet clothes frozen to our skins?" he objected.
"Jon Snow, you know nothing. You don't go in with clothes."
"I don't go in at all," he said firmly, just before he heard Tormund Thunderfist bellowing for him (he
hadn't, but never mind).
The wildlings seemed to think Ygritte a great beauty because of her hair; red hair was rare among the
free folk, and those who had it were said to be kissed by fire, which was supposed to be lucky. Lucky it
might be, and red it certainly was, but Ygritte's hair was such a tangle that Jon was tempted to ask her if
she only brushed it at the changing of the seasons.
At a lord's court the girl would never have been considered anything but common, he knew. She had a
round peasant face, a pug nose, and slightly crooked teeth, and her eyes were too far apart. Jon had
noticed all that the first time he'd seen her, when his dirk had been at her throat. Lately, though, he was
noticing some other things. When she grinned, the crooked teeth didn't seem to matter. And maybe her
eyes were too far apart, but they were a pretty blue-grey color, and lively as any eyes he knew.
Sometimes she sang in a low husky voice that stirred him. And sometimes by the cookfire when she sat
hugging her knees with the flames waking echoes in her red hair, and looked at him, just smiling ... well,
that stirred some things as well.
But he was a man of the Night's Watch, he had taken a vow. I shall take no wife, hold no lands, father
no children. He had said the words before the weirwood, before his father's gods. He could not unsay
them ... no more than he could admit the reason for his reluctance to Tormund Thunderfist, Father to
Bears.
"Do you mislike the girl?" Tormund asked him as they passed another twenty mammoths, these bearing
wildlings in tall wooden towers instead of giants.


"No, but I..." What can I say that he will believe? "I am still too young to wed."
"Wed?" Tormund laughed. "Who spoke of wedding? In the south, must a man wed every girl he beds?"
Jon could feel himself turning red again. "She spoke for me when Rattleshirt would have killed me. I
would not dishonor her."
"You are a free man now, and Ygritte is a free woman. What dishonor if you lay together?"
"I might get her with child."
"Aye, I'd hope so. A strong son or a lively laughing girl kissed by fire, and where's the harm in that?"
Words failed him for a moment. "The boy ... the child would be a bastard."
"Are bastards weaker than other children? More sickly, more like to fail? "
"No, but -
"You're bastard-born yourself. And if Ygritte does not want a child, she will go to some woods witch
and drink a cup o' moon tea. You do not come into it, once the seed is planted."
"I will not father a bastard."
Tormund shook his shaggy head. "What fools you kneelers be. Why did you steal the girl if you don't
want her?"
"Steal? I never..."
"You did," said Tormund. "You slew the two she was with and carried her off, what do you call it?"
"I took her prisoner."
"You made her yield to you."
"Yes, but ... Tormund, I swear, I've never touched her."
"Are you certain they never cut your member off?" Tormund gave a shrug, as if to say he would never
understand such madness. "Well, you are a free man now, but if you will not have the girl, best find
yourself a she-bear. If a man does not use his member it grows smaller and smaller, until one day he
wants to piss and cannot find it."
Jon had no answer for that. Small wonder that the Seven Kingdoms thought the free folk scarcely
human. They have no laws, no honor, not even simple decency. They steal endlessly from each other,
breed like beasts, prefer rape to marriage, and fill the world with baseborn children. Yet he was growing
fond of Tormund Giantsbane, great bag of wind and lies though he was. Longspear as well. And Ygritte
... no, I will not think about Ygritte.
Along with the Tormunds and the Longspears rode other sorts of wildlings, though; men like Rattleshirt
and the Weeper who would as soon slit you as spit on you. There was Harma Dogshead, a squat keg of
a woman with cheeks like slabs of white meat, who hated dogs and killed one every fortnight to make a


fresh head for her banner; earless Styr, Magnar of Therm, whose own people thought him more god than
lord; Varamyr Sixskins, a small mouse of a man whose steed was a savage white snow bear that stood
thirteen feet tall on its hind legs. And wherever the bear and Varamyr went, three wolves and a
shadowcat came following. Jon had been in his presence only once, and once had been enough; the mere
sight of the man had made him bristle, even as the fur on the back of Ghost's neck had bristled at the
sight of the bear and that long black-and-white 'cat.
And there were folks fiercer even than Varamyr, from the northernmost
reaches of the haunted forest, the hidden valleys of the Frostfangs, and even queerer places: the men of
the Frozen Shore who rode in chariots made of walrus bones pulled along by packs of savage dogs, the
terrible ice-river clans who were said to feast on human flesh, the cave dwellers with their faces dyed
blue and purple and green. With his own eyes Jon had beheld the Hornfoot men trotting along in column
on bare soles as hard as boiled leather. He had not seen any snarks or grumpkins, but for all he knew
Tormund would be having some to supper.
Half the wildling host had lived all their lives without so much as a glimpse of the Wall, Jon judged, and
most of those spoke no word of the Common Tongue. It did not matter. Mance Rayder spoke the Old
Tongue, even sang in it, fingering his lute and filling the night with strange wild music.
Mance had spent years assembling this vast plodding host, talking to this clan mother and that magnar,
winning one village with sweet words and another with a song and a third with the edge of his sword,
making peace between Hanna Dogshead and the Lord o' Bones, between the Hornfoots and the
Nightrunners, between the walrus men of the Frozen Shore and the cannibal clans of the great ice rivers,
hammering a hundred different daggers into one great spear, aimed at the heart of the Seven Kingdoms.
He had no crown nor scepter, no robes of silk and velvet, but it was plain to Jon that Mance Rayder was
a king in more than name.
Jon had joined the wildlings at Qhorin Halfhand's command. "Ride with them, eat with them, fight with
them," the ranger had told him, the night before he died. "And watch." But all his watching had learned
him little. The Halfhand had suspected that the wildlings had gone up into the bleak and barren Frostfangs
in search of some weapon, some power, some fell sorcery with which to break the Wall ... but if they
had found any such, no one was boasting of it openly, or showing it to Jon. Nor had Mance Rayder
confided any of his plans or strategies. Since that first night, he had hardly seen the man save at a
distance.
I will kill him if I must. The prospect gave Jon no joy; there would be no honor in such a killing, and it
would mean his own death as well. Yet he could not let the wildlings breach the Wall, to threaten
Winterfell and the north, the barrowlands and the Rills, White Harbor and the Stony Shore, even the
Neck. For eight thousand years the men of House Stark had lived and died to protect their people
against such ravagers; and reavers ... and bastard-bom or no, the same blood ran in his veins. Bran and
Rickon are still at Winterfell besides. Maester Luwin, Ser Rodrik, Old Nan, Farlen the kennelmaster,
Mikken at his forge and Gage by his ovens ... everyone I ever knew, everyone I ever loved. If Jon must
slay a man he half admired and almost liked to save them from the mercies
of Rattleshirt and Harma Dogshead and the earless Magnar of Thenn, that was what he meant to do.
Still, he prayed his father's gods might spare him that bleak task. The host moved but slowly, burdened
as it was by all the wildlings' herds and children and mean little treasures, and the snows had slowed its
progress even more. Most of the column was out of the foothills now, oozing down along the west bank
of the Milkwater like honey on a cold winter's morning, following the course of the river into the heart of


the haunted forest.
And somewhere close ahead, Jon knew, the Fist of the First Men loomed above the trees, home to
three hundred black brothers of the Night's Watch, armed, mounted, and waiting. The Old Bear had sent
out other scouts besides the Halffiand, and surely Jarman Buckwell or Thoren Smallwood would have
returned by now with word of what was coming down out of the mountains.
Mormont will not run, Jon thought. He is too old and he has come too far. He will strike, and damn the
numbers. One day soon he would hear the sound of warhorns, and see a column of riders pounding
down on them with black cloaks flapping and cold steel in their hands. Three hundred men could not
hope to kill a hundred times their number, of course, but Jon did not think they would need to. He need
not slay a thousand, only one. Mance is all that keeps them together.
The King-beyond-the-Wall was doing all he could, yet the wildlings remained hopelessly undisciplined,
and that made them vulnerable. Here and there within the leagues-long snake that was their line of march
were warriors as fierce as any in the Watch, but a good third of them were grouped at either end of the
column, in Harma Dogshead's van and the savage rearguard with its giants, aurochs, and fire flingers.
Another third rode with Mance himself near the center, guarding the wayns and sledges and dog carts
that held the great bulk of the host's provisions and supplies, all that remained of the last summer harvest.
The rest, divided into small bands under the likes of Rattleshirt, Jarl, Tormund Giantsbane, and the
Weeper, served as outriders, foragers, and whips, galloping up and down the column endlessly to keep it
moving in a more or less orderly fashion.
And even more telling, only one in a hundred wildlings was mounted. The Old Bear will go through them
like an axe through porridge. And when that happened, Mance must give chase with his center, to try and
blunt the threat. If he should fall in the fight that must follow, the Wall would be safe for another hundred
years, Jon judged. And if not ...
He flexed the burned fingers of his sword hand. Longclaw was slung to his saddle, the carved stone wolf
's-head pommel and soft leather grip of the great bastard sword within easy reach.
The snow was falling heavily by the time they caught Tormund's band, several hours later. Ghost
departed along the way, melting into the forest at the scent of prey. The direwolf would return when they
made camp for the night, by dawn at the latest. However far he prowled, Ghost always came back ...
and so, it seemed, did Ygritte.
"So," the girl called when she saw him, "d'you believe us now, Jon Snow? Did you see the giants on their
mammoths?"
"Har!" shouted Tormund, before Jon could reply. "The crow's in love! He means to marry one!"
"A giantess?" Longspear Ryk laughed.
"No, a mammoth!" Tormund bellowed. "Har!"
Ygritte trotted beside Jon as he slowed his garron to a walk. She claimed to be three years older than
him, though she stood half a foot shorter; however old she might be, the girl was a tough little thing.
Stonesnake had called her a "spearwife" when they'd captured her in the Skirling Pass. She wasn't wed
and her weapon of choice was a short curved bow of horn and weirwood, but "spearwife" fit her all the
same. She reminded him a little of his sister Arya, though Arya was younger and probably skinnier. It
was hard to tell how plump or thin Ygritte might be, with all the furs and skins she wore.


"Do you know 'The Last of the Giants'?" Without waiting for an answer Ygritte said, "You need a
deeper voice than mine to do it proper." Then she sang, "Ooooooh, I am the last of the giants, my people
are gone from the earth."
Tormund Giantsbane heard the words and grinned. "The last of the great mountain giants, who ruled all
the world at my birth," he bellowed back through the snow.
Longspear Ryk joined in, singing, "Oh, the smallfolk have stolen my forests, they've stolen my rivers and
hills."
"And they've built a great wall through my valleys, and fished all the fish from my rills," Ygritte and
Tormund sang back at him in turn, in suitably gigantic voices.
Tormund's sons Toregg and Dormund added their deep voices as well, then his daughter Munda and all
the rest. Others began to bang their spears on leathern shields to keep rough time, until the whole war
band was singing as they rode.
In stone halls they bum their great fires, in stone halls they forge their sharp spears.
Whilst I walk alone in the mountains, with no true companion but tears.
They hunt me with dogs in the daylight, they hunt me with torches by night.
For these men who are small can never stand tall, whilst giants still walk in the light.
Oooooooh, I am the LAST of the giants, so learn well the words of my song.
For when I am gone the singing will fade, and the silence shall last long and long.
There were tears on Ygritte's cheeks when the song ended.
"Why are you weeping?" Ion asked. "It was only a song. There are hundreds of giants, I've just seen
them."
"Oh, hundreds," she said furiously. "You know nothing, Jon Snow. You - fON!"
Jon turned at the sudden sound of wings. Blue-grey feathers filled his eyes, as sharp talons buried
themselves in his face. Red pain lanced through him sudden and fierce as pinions beat round his head. He
saw the beak, but there was no time to get a hand up or reach for a weapon. Jon reeled backward, his
foot lost the stirrup, his garron broke in panic, and then he was falling. And still the eagle clung to his face,
its talons tearing at him as it flapped and shrieked and pecked. The world turned upside down in a chaos
of feathers and horseflesh and blood, and then the ground came up to smash him.
The next he knew, he was on his face with the taste of mud and blood in his mouth and Ygritte kneeling
over him protectively, a bone dagger in her hand. He could still hear wings, though the eagle was not in
sight. Half his world was black. "My eye," he said in sudden panic, raising a hand to his face.
"It's only blood, Jon Snow. He missed the eye, just ripped your skin up some."
His face was throbbing. Tormund stood over them bellowing, he saw from his right eye as he rubbed


blood from his left. Then there were hoofbeats, shouts, and the clacking of old dry bones.
"Bag o' Bones," roared Tormund, "call off your hellcrow!"
"There's your hellcrow!" Rattleshirt pointed at Jon. "Bleeding in the mud like a faithless dog!" The eagle
came flapping down to land atop the broken giant's skull that served him for his helm. "I'm here for him."
"Come take him then," said Tormund, "but best come with sword in hand, for that's where you'll find
mine. Might be I'll boil your bones, and use your skull to piss in. Har!"
"Once I prick you and let the air out, you'll shrink down smallern that girl. Stand aside, or Mance will
hear o' this."
Ygritte stood. "What, is it Mance who wants him?"
"I said so, didn't I? Get him up on those black feet."
Tormund frowned down at Jon. "Best go, if it's the Mance who's wanting you."
Ygritte helped pull him up. "He's bleeding like a butchered boar. Look what Orell did t' his sweet face."
Can a bird hate? Jon had slain the wildling Orell, but some part of the man remained within the eagle.
The golden eyes looked out on him with cold malevolence. "I'll come," he said. The blood kept running
down into his right eye, and his cheek was a blaze of pain. When he touched it his black gloves came
away stained with red. "Let me catch my garron." It was not the horse he wanted so much as Ghost, but
the direwolf was nowhere to be seen. He could be leagues away by now, ripping out the throat of some
elk. Perhaps that was just as well.
The garron shied away from him when he approached, no doubt frightened by the blood on his face, but
Jon calmed him with a few quiet words and finally got close enough to take the reins. As he swung back
into the saddle his head whirled. I will need to get this tended, he thought, but not just now Let the Kingbeyond-
the- Wall see what his eagle did to me. His right hand opened and closed, and he reached down
for Longclaw and slung the bastard sword over a shoulder before he wheeled to trot back to where the
Lord of Bones and his band were waiting,
Ygritte was waiting too, sitting on her horse with a fierce look on her face. "I am coming too."
"Be gone." The bones of Rattleshirt's breastplate clattered together. "I was sent for the
crow-come-down, none other."
"A free woman rides where she will," Ygritte said.
The wind was blowing snow into Jon's eyes. He could feel the blood freezing on his face. "Are we
talking or riding?"
"Riding," said the Lord of Bones.
It was a grim gallop. They rode two miles down the column through swirling snows, then cut through a
tangle of baggage wayns to splash across the Milkwater where it took a great loop toward the east. A
crust of thin ice covered the river shallows; with every step their horses'hooves crashed through, until they
reached the deeper water ten yards out. The snow seemed be falling even faster on the eastern bank, and


the drifts were deeper too. Even the wind is colder. And night was falling too.
But even through the blowing snow, the shape of the great white hill that loomed above the trees was
unmistakable. The Fist of the First Men. Jon heard the scream of the eagle overhead. A raven looked
down from a soldier pine and quorked as he went past. Had the Old Bear made his attack? Instead of
the clash of steel and the thrum of arrows taking flight, Jon heard only the soft crunch of frozen crust
beneath his garron's hooves.
In silence they circled round to the south slope, where the approach was easiest. It was there at the
bottom that Jon saw the dead horse,
sprawled at the base of the hill, half buried in the snow. Entrails spilled from the belly of the animal like
frozen snakes, and one of its legs was gone. Wolves, was Jon's first thought, but that was wrong. Wolves
eat their kill.
More garrons were strewn across the slope, legs twisted grotesquely, blind eyes staring in death. The
wildlings crawled over them like flies, stripping them of saddles, bridles, packs, and armor, and hacking
them apart with stone axes.
"Up," Rattleshirt told Jon. "Mance is up top."
Outside the ringwall they dismounted to squeeze through a crooked gap in the stones. The carcass of a
shaggy brown garron was impaled upon the sharpened stakes the Old Bear had placed inside every
entrance. He was trying to get out, not in. There was no sign of a rider.
Inside was more, and worse. Jon had never seen pink snow before. The wind gusted around him, pulling
at his heavy sheepskin cloak. Ravens flapped from one dead horse to the next. Are those wild ravens, or
our own? Jon could not tell. He wondered where poor Sam was now. And what he was.
A crust of frozen blood crunched beneath the heel of his boot. The wildlings were stripping the dead
horses of every scrap of steel and leather, even prying the horseshoes off their hooves. A few were going
through packs they'd turned up, looking for weapons and food. Jon passed one of Chett's dogs, or what
remained of him, lying in a sludgy pool of halffrozen blood.
A few tents were still standing on the far side of the camp, and it was there they found Mance Rayder.
Beneath his slashed cloak of black wool and red silk he wore black ringmail and shaggy fur breeches,
and on his head was a great bronze-and-iron helm with raven wings at either temple. Jarl was with him,
and Harma the Dogshead; Styr as well, and Varamyr Sixskins with his wolves and his shadowcat.
The look Mance gave Jon was grim and cold. "What happened to your face? "
Ygritte said, "Orell tried to take his eye out."
"It was him I asked. Has he lost his tongue? Perhaps he should, to spare us further lies."
Styr the Magnar drew a long knife. "The boy might see more clear with one eye, instead of two."
"Would you like to keep your eye, Jon?" asked the King-beyond-theWall. "If so, tell me how many they
were. And try and speak the truth this time, Bastard of Winterfell."
Jon's throat was dry. "My lord ... what..."


"I am not your lord," said Mance. "And the what is plain enough. Your brothers died. The question is,
how many?"
Jon's face was throbbing, the snow kept coming down, and it was hard
to think. You must not balk, whatever is asked of you, Qhorin had told him. The words stuck in his
throat, but he made himself say, "There were three hundred of us."
"Us?" Mance said sharply.
"Them. Three hundred of them." Whatever is asked, the Halfhand said. So why do I feel so craven?
"Two hundred from Castle Black, and one hundred from the Shadow Tower."
"There's a truer song than the one you sang in my tent." Mance looked to Harma Dogshead. "How many
horses have we found?"
"More'n a hundred," that huge woman replied, "less than two. There's more dead to the east, under the
snow, hard t' know how many." Behind her stood her banner bearer, holding a pole with a dog's head on
it, fresh enough to still be leaking blood.
"You should never have lied to me, Jon Snow," said Mance.
"I ... I know that." What could he say?
The wildling king studied his face. "Who had the command here? And tell me true. Was it Rykker?
Smallwood? Not Wythers, he's too feeble. Whose tent was this?"
I have said too much. "You did not find his body?"
Harma snorted, her disdain frosting from her nostrils. "What fools these black crows be."
"The next time you answer me with a question, I will give you to my Lord of Bones," Mance Rayder
promised Jon. He stepped closer. "Who led here?"
One more step, thought Jon. Another foot. He moved his hand closer to Longclaw's hilt. If I hold my
tongue ...
"Reach up for that bastard sword and I'll have your bastard head off before it clears the scabbard," said
Mance. "I am fast losing patience with you, crow."
"Say it," Ygritte urged. "He's dead, whoever he was."
His frown cracked the blood on his cheek. This is too hard, Jon thought in despair. How do I play the
turncloak without becoming one? Qhorin had not told him that. But the second step is always easier than
the first. "The Old Bear."
"That old man?" Harma's tone said she did not believe it. "He came himself ? Then who commands at
Castle Black?"
"Bowen Marsh." This time Jon answered at once. You must not balk, whatever is asked of you.


Mance laughed. "If so, our war is won. Bowen knows a deal more about counting swords than he's ever
known about using them."
"The Old Bear commanded," said Jon. "This place was high and strong, and he made it stronger. He dug
pits and planted stakes, laid up food and water. He was ready for. . . "
". . me?" finished Mance Rayder. "Aye, he was. Had I been fool enough to storm this hill, I might have
lost five men for every crow I slew and still counted myself lucky." His mouth grew hard. "But when the
dead walk, walls and stakes and swords mean nothing. You cannot fight the dead, Jon Snow. No man
knows that half so well as me." He gazed up at the darkening sky and said, "The crows may have helped
us more than they know. I'd wondered why we'd suffered no attacks. But there's still a hundred leagues
to go, and the cold is rising. Varamyr, send your wolves sniffing after the wights, I won't have them taking
us unawares. My Lord of Bones, double all the patrols, and make certain every man has torch and flint.
Styr, Jarl, you ride at first light."
"Mance," Rattleshirt said, "I want me some crow bones."
Ygritte stepped in front of Jon. "You can't kill a man for lying to protect them as was his brothers."
"They are still his brothers," declared Styr.
"They're not," insisted Ygritte. "He never killed me, like they told him. And he slew the Halfhand, we all
saw."
Jon's breath misted the air. If I lie to him, he'll know He looked Mance Rayder in the eyes, opened and
closed his burned hand. "I wear the cloak you gave me, Your Grace."
"A sheepskin cloak!" said Ygritte. "And there's many a night we dance beneath it, too!"
Jarl laughed, and even Harma Dogshead smirked. "Is that the way of it, Jon Snow?" asked Mance
Rayder, mildly. "Her and you?"
It was easy to lose your way beyond the Wall. Jon did not know that he could tell honor from shame
anymore, or right from wrong. Father forgive me. "Yes," he said.
Mance nodded. "Good. You'll go with Jarl and Styr on the morrow, then. Both of you. Far be it from
me to separate two hearts that beat as one."
"Go where?" said Jon.
"Over the Wall. It's past time you proved your faith with something more than words, Jon Snow."
The Magnar was not pleased. "What do I want with a crow?"
"He knows the Watch and he knows the Wall," said Mance, "and he knows Castle Black better than
any raider ever could. You'll find a use for him, or you're a fool."
Styr scowled. "His heart may still be black."
"Then cut it out." Mance turned to Rattleshirt. "My Lord of Bones, keep the column moving at all costs.


If we reach the Wall before Mon mont, we've won."
"They'll move." Rattleshirt's voice was thick and angry.
Mance nodded, and walked away, Harma and Sixskins beside him.
Varamyr's wolves and shadowcat followed behind. Jon and Ygritte were left with Jarl, Rattleshirt, and
the Magnar. The two older wildlings; looked at Jon with ill-concealed rancor as Jarl said, "You heard,
we ride at daybreak. Bring all the food you can, there'll be no time to hunt. And have your face seen to,
crow. You look a bloody mess."
"I will," said Jon.
"You best not be lying, girl," Rattleshirt said to Ygritte, his eyes shiny behind the giant's skull.
Jon drew Longclaw. "Get away from us, unless you want what Qhorin got."
"You got no wolf to help you here, boy." Rattleshirt reached for his own sword.
"Sure o' that, are you?" Ygritte laughed.
Atop the stones of the ringwall, Ghost hunched with white fur bristling. He made no sound, but his dark
red eyes spoke blood. The Lord of Bones moved his hand slowly away from his sword, backed off a
step, and left them with a curse.
Ghost padded beside their garrons as Jon and Ygritte descended the Fist. It was not until they were
halfway across the Milkwater that Jon felt safe enough to say, "I never asked you to lie for me."
"I never did," she said. "I left out part, is all."
"You said - "
" - that we fuck beneath your cloak many a night. I never said when we started, though." The smile she
gave him was almost shy. "Find another place for Ghost to sleep tonight, Jon Snow. It's like Mance said.
Deeds is truer than words."
Chapter 16
Sansa
"A new gown?" she said, as wary as she was astonished.
"More lovely than any you have worn, my lady," the old woman promised. She measured Sansa's hips
with a length of knotted string. "All silk and Myrish lace, with satin linings. You will be very beautiful. The
queen herself has commanded it."
"Which queen?" Margaery was not yet Joff 's queen, but she had been Renly's. Or did she mean the


Queen of Thorns? Or ...
"The Queen Regent, to be sure."
"Queen Cersei?"
"None other. She has honored me with her custom for many a year." The old woman laid her string
along the inside of Sansa's leg. "Her Grace said to me that you are a woman now, and should not dress
like a little girl. Hold out your arm."
Sansa lifted her arm. She needed a new gown, that was true. She had grown three inches in the past
year, and most of her old wardrobe had been ruined by the smoke when she'd tried to bum her mattress
on the day of her first flowering
"Your bosom will be as lovely as the queen's," the old woman said as she looped her string around
Sansa's chest. "You should not hide it so."
The comment made her blush. Yet the last time she'd gone riding, she could not lace her jerkin all the
way to the top, and the stableboy gaped at her as he helped her mount. Sometimes she caught grown
men looking at her chest as well, and some of her tunics were so tight she could scarce breathe in them.
"What color will it be?" she asked the seamstress.
"Leave the colors to me, my lady. You will be pleased, I know you will. You shall have smallclothes and
hose as well, kirtles and mantles and cloaks, and all else befitting a ... a lovely young lady of noble birth."
"Will they be ready in time for the king's wedding?"
"Oh, sooner, much sooner, Her Grace insists. I have six seamstresses and twelve apprentice girls, and
we have set all our other work aside for this. Many ladies will be cross with us, but it was the queen's
command."
"Thank Her Grace kindly for her thoughtfulness," Sansa said politely. "She is too good to me."
"Her Grace is most generous," the seamstress agreed, as she gathered up her things and took her leave.
But why? Sansa wondered when she was alone. It made her uneasy. I'll wager this gown is Margaery's
doing somehow, or her grandmother's.
Margaery's kindness had been unfailing, and her presence changed everything. Her ladies welcomed
Sansa as well. It had been so long since she had enjoyed the company of other women, she had almost
forgotten how pleasant it could be. Lady Leonette gave her lessons on the high harp, and Lady Janna
shared all the choice gossip. Merry Crane always had an amusing story, and little Lady Bulwer reminded
her of Arya, though not so fierce.
Closest to Sansa's own age were the cousins Elinor, Alla, and Megga, Tyrells from junior branches of
the House. "Roses from lower on the bush," quipped Elinor, who was witty and willowy. Megga was
round and loud, Alla shy and pretty, but Elinor ruled the three by right of womanhood; she was a maiden
flowered, whereas Megga and Alla were mere girls.
The cousins took Sansa into their company as if they had known her all their lives. They spent long


afternoons doing needlework and talking over lemon cakes and honeyed wine, played at tiles of an
evening, sang together in the castle sept ... and often one or two of them would be chosen to share
Margaery's bed, where they would whisper half the night away. Alla had a lovely voice, and when
coaxed would play the woodharp and sing songs of chivalry and lost loves. Megga couldn't sing, but she
was mad to be kissed. She and Alla played a kissing game sometimes, she confessed, but it wasn't the
same as kissing a man, much less a king. Sansa wondered what Megga would think about kissing the
Hound, as she had. He'd come to her the night of the battle stinking of wine and blood. He kissed me
and threatened to kill me, and made me sing him a song.
"King Joffrey has such beautiful lips," Megga gushed, oblivious, "oh, poor Sansa, how your heart must
have broken when you lost him. Oh, how you must have wept!"
Joffrey made me weep more often than you know, she wanted to say,
but Butterbumps was not on hand to drown out her voice, so she pressed her lips together and held her
tongue.
As for Elinor, she was promised to a young squire, a son of Lord Ambrose; they would be wed as soon
as he won his spurs. He had worn her favor in the Battle of the Blackwater, where he'd slain a Myrish
crossbowman and a Mullendore man-at-arms. "Alyn said her favor made him fearless," said Megga. "He
says he shouted her name for his battle cry, isn't that ever so gallant? Someday I want some champion to
wear my favor, and kill a hundred men." Elinor told her to hush, but looked pleased all the same.
They are children, Sansa thought. They are silly little girls, even Elinor. They've never seen a battle,
they've never seen a man die, they know nothing. Their dreams were full of songs and stories, the way
hers had been before Joffrey cut her father's head off. Sansa pitied them. Sansa envied them.
Margaery was different, though. Sweet and gentle, yet there was a little of her grandmother in her, too.
The day before last she'd taken Sansa hawking. It was the first time she had been outside the city since
the battle. The dead had been burned or buried, but the Mud Gate was scarred and splintered where
Lord Stannis's rams had battered it, and the hulls of smashed ships could be seen along both sides of the
Blackwater, charred masts poking from the shallows like gaunt black fingers. The only traffic was the
flat-bottomed ferry that took them across the river, and when they reached the kingswood they found a
wilderness of ash and charcoal and dead trees. But the waterfowl teemed in the marshes along the bay,
and Sansa's merlin brought down three ducks while Margaery's peregrine took a heron in full flight.
"Willas has the best birds in the Seven Kingdoms," Margaery said when the two of them were briefly
alone. "He flies an eagle sometimes. You will see, Sansa." She took her by the hand and gave it a
squeeze. "Sister."
Sister. Sansa had once dreamt of having a sister like Margaery; beautiful and gentle, with all the world's
graces at her command. Arya had been entirely unsatisfactory as sisters went. How can I let my sister
marry loffrey? she thought, and suddenly her eyes were full of tears. "Margaery, please," she said, "you
mustn't." It was hard to get the words out. "You mustn't marry him. He's not like he seems, he's not. He'll
hurt you."
"I shouldn't think so." Margaery smiled confidently. "It's brave of you to warn me, but you need not fear.
Joff's spoiled and vain and I don't doubt that he's as cruel as you say, but Father forced him to name
Loras to his Kingsguard before he would agree to the match. I shall have the finest knight in the Seven
Kingdoms protecting me night and day, as Prince Aemon protected Naerys. So our little lion had best
behave, hadn't


he?" She laughed, and said, "Come, sweet sister, let's race back to the river. It will drive our guards
quite mad." And without waiting for an answer, she put her heels into her horse and flew.
She is so brave, Sansa thought, galloping after her ... and yet, her doubts still gnawed at her. Ser Loras
was a great knight, all agreed. But Joffrey had other Kingsguard, and gold cloaks and red cloaks
besides, and when he was older he would command armies of his own. Aegon the Unworthy had never
harmed Queen Naerys, perhaps for fear of their brother the Dragonknight ... but when another of his
Kingsguard fell in love with one of his mistresses, the king had taken both their heads.
Ser Loras is a Tyrell, Sansa reminded herself. That other knight was only a Toyne. His brothers had no
armies, no way to avenge him but with swords. Yet the more she thought about it all, the more she
wondered. Joff might restrain himself for a few turns, perhaps as long as a year, but soon or late he will
show his claws, and when he does ... The realm might have a second Kingslayer, and there would be
war inside the city, as the men of the lion and the men of the rose made the gutters run red.
Sansa was surprised that Margaery did not see it too. She is older than me, she must be wiser. And her
father, Lord Tyrell, he knows what he is doing, surely. I am just being silly.
When she told Ser Dontos that she was going to Highgarden to marry Willas Tyrell, she thought he
would be relieved and pleased for her. Instead he had grabbed her arm and said, "You cannot!" in a
voice as thick with horror as with wine. "I tell you, these Tyrells are only Lannisters with flowers. I beg of
you, forget this folly, give your Florian a kiss, and promise you'll go ahead as we have planned. The night
of Joffrey's wedding, that's not so long, wear the silver hair net and do as I told you, and afterward we
make our escape." He tried to plant a kiss on her cheek.
Sansa slipped from his grasp and stepped away from him. "I won't. I can't. Something would go wrong.
When I wanted to escape you wouldn't take me, and now I don't need to."
Dontos stared at her stupidly. "But the arrangements are made, sweetling. The ship to take you home,
the boat to take you to the ship, your Florian did it all for his sweet Jonquil."
"I am sorry for all the trouble I put you to," she said, "but I have no need of boats and ships now."
"But it's all to see you safe."
"I will be safe in Highgarden. Willas will keep me safe."
"But he does not know you," Dontos insisted, "and he will not love you. Jonquil, Jonquil, open your
sweet eyes, these Tyrells care nothing for you. it's your claim they mean to wed."
"My claim?" She was lost for a moment.
"Sweetling," he told her, "you are heir to Winterfell." He grabbed her
again, pleading that she must not do this thing, and Sansa wrenched free and left him swaying beneath
the heart tree. She had not visited the godswood since.
But she had not forgotten his words, either. The heir to Winterfell, she would think as she lay abed at
night. It's your claim they mean to wed. Sansa had grown up with three brothers. She never thought to
have a claim, but with Bran and Rickon dead ... It doesn't matter, there's still Robb, he's a man grown


now, and soon he'll wed and have a son. Anyway, Willas Tyrell will have Highgarden, what would he
want with Winterfell?
Sometimes she would whisper his name into her pillow just to hear the sound of it. "Willas, Willas,
Willas." Willas was as good a name as Loras, she supposed. They even sounded the same, a little. What
did it matter about his leg? Willas would be Lord of Highgarden and she would be his lady.
She pictured the two of them sitting together in a garden with puppies in their laps, or listening to a singer
strum upon a lute while they floated down the Mander on a pleasure barge. If I give him sons, he may
come to love me. She would name them Eddard and Brandon and Rickon, and raise them all to be as
valiant as Ser Loras. And to hate Lannisters, too. In Sansa's dreams, her children looked just like the
brothers she had lost. Sometimes there was even a girl who looked like Arya.
She could never hold a picture of Willas long in her head, though; her imaginings kept turning him back
into Ser Loras, young and graceful and beautiful. You must not think of him like that, she told herself. Or
else he may see the disappointment in your eyes when you meet, and how could he marry you then,
knowing it was his brother you loved? Willas Tyrell was twice her age, she reminded herself constantly,
and lame as well, and perhaps even plump and red-faced like his father. But comely or no, he might be
the only champion she would ever have.
Once she dreamed it was still her marrying Joff, not Margaery, and on their wedding night he turned into
the headsman Ilyn Payne. She woke trembling. She did not want Margaery to suffer as she had, but she
dreaded the thought that the Tyrells might refuse to go ahead with the wedding. I warned her, I did, I told
her the truth of him. Perhaps Margaery did not believe her. Joff always played the perfect knight with her,
as once he had with Sansa. She will see his true nature soon enough. After the wedding if not before.
Sansa decided that she would light a candle to the Mother Above the next time she visited the sept, and
ask her to protect Margaery from Joffrey's cruelty. And perhaps a candle to the Warrior as well, for
Loras.
She would wear her new gown for the ceremony at the Great Sept of Baelor, she decided as the
seamstress took her last measurement. That
must be why Cersei is having it made for me, so I will not look shabby at the wedding. She really ought
to have a different gown for the feast afterward but she supposed one of her old ones would do. She did
not want to risk getting food or wine on the new one. I must take it with me to Highgarden. She wanted
to look beautiful for Willas Tyrell. Even if Dontos was right, and it is Winterfell he wants and not me, he
still may come to love me for myself. Sansa hugged herself tightly, wondering how long it would be
before the gown was ready. She could scarcely wait to wear it.
Chapter 17
ARYA
The rains came and went, but there was more grey sky than blue, and all the streams were running high.
On the morning of the third day, Arya noticed that the moss was growing mostly on the wrong side of the
trees. "We're going the wrong way," she said to Gendry, as they rode past an especially mossy elm.
"We're going south. See how the moss is growing on the trunk?"


He pushed thick black hair from eyes and said, "We're following the road, that's all. The road goes south
here."
We've been going south all day, she wanted to tell him. And yesterday too, when we were riding along
that streambed. But she hadn't been paying close attention yesterday, so she couldn't be certain. "I think
we're lost," she said in a low voice. "We shouldn't have left the river. All we had to do was follow it."
"The river bends and loops," said Gendry. "This is just a shorter way, I bet. Some secret outlaw way.
Lem and Tom and them have been living here for years."
That was true. Arya bit her lip. "But the moss..."
"The way it's raining, we'll have moss growing from our ears before long," Gendry complained.
"Only from our south ear," Arya declared stubbornly. There was no use trying to convince the Bull of
anything. Still, he was the only true friend she had, now that Hot Pie had left them.
"Shama says she needs me to bake bread," he'd told her, the day they rode. "Anyhow I'm tired of rain
and saddlesores and being scared all the time. There's ale here, and rabbit to eat, and the bread will be
better
when I make it. You'll see, when you come back. You will come back, won't you? When the war's
done?" He remembered who she was then, and added, "My lady," reddening.
Arya didn't know if the war would ever be done, but she had nodded. "I'm sorry I beat you that time,"
she said. Hot Pie was stupid and craven, but he'd been with her all the way from King's Landing and
she'd gotten used to him. "I broke your nose."
"You broke Lem's too." Hot Pie grinned. "That was good."
"Lem didn't think so," Arya said glumly. Then it was time to go. When Hot Pie asked if he might kiss
milady's hand, she punched his shoulder. "Don't call me that. You're Hot Pie, and I'm Arry."
"I'm not Hot Pie here. Shama just calls me Boy. The same as she calls the other boy. it's going to be
confusing."
She missed him more than she thought she would ' but Harwin made up for it some. She had told him
about his father Hullen, and how she'd found him dying by the stables in the Red Keep, the day she fled.
"He always said he'd die in a stable," Harwin said, "but we all thought some bad-tempered stallion would
be his death, not a pack of lions." Arya told of Yoren and their escape from King's Landing as well, and
much that had happened since, but she left out the stableboy she'd stabbed with Needle, and the guard
whose throat she'd cut to get out of Harrenhal. Telling Harwin would be almost like telling her father, and
there were some things that she could not bear having her father know.
Nor did she speak of Jaqen Hghar and the three deaths he'd owed and paid. The iron coin he'd given
her Arya kept tucked away beneath her belt, but sometimes at night she would take it out and remember
how his face had melted and changed when he ran his hand across it. "Valar morghulis," she would say
under her breath. "Ser Gregor, Dunsen, Polliver, Raff the Sweetling. The Tickler and the Hound. Ser
Ilyn, Ser Meryn, Queen Cersei, King Joffrey."


Only six Winterfell men remained of the twenty her father had sent west with Beric Dondarrion, Harwin
told her, and they were scattered. "It was a trap, milady. Lord Tywin sent his Mountain across the Red
Fork with fire and sword, hoping to draw your lord father. He planned for Lord Eddard to come west
himself to deal with Gregor Clegane. If he had he would have been killed, or taken prisoner and traded
for the Imp, who was your lady mother's captive at the time. Only the Kingslayer never knew Lord
Tywin's plan, and when he heard about his brother's capture he attacked your father in the streets of
King's Landing."
"I remember," said Arya. "He killed Jory." Jory had always smiled at her, when he wasn't telling her to
get from underfoot.
"He killed Jory," Harwin agreed, "and your father's leg was broken when his horse fell on him. So Lord
Eddard couldn't go west. He sent Lord Beric
instead, with twenty of his own men and twenty from Winterfell, me among them. There were others
besides. Thoros and Ser Raymun Darry and their men, Ser Gladden Wylde, a lord named Lothar
Mallery. But Gregor was waiting for us at the Mummer's Ford, with men concealed on both banks. As
we crossed he fell upon us from front and rear.
"I saw the Mountain slay Raymun Darry with a single blow so terrible that it took Darry's arm off at the
elbow and killed the horse beneath him too. Gladden Wylde died there with him, and Lord Mallery was
ridden down and drowned. We had lions on every side, and I thought I was doomed with the rest, but
Alyn shouted commands and restored order to our ranks, and those still a horse rallied around Thoros
and cut our way free. Six score we'd been that morning. By dark no more than two score were left, and
Lord Beric was gravely wounded. Thoros drew a foot of lance from his chest that night, and poured
boiling wine into the hole it left.
"Every man of us was certain his lordship would be dead by daybreak. But Thoros prayed with him all
night beside the fire, and when dawn came, he was still alive, and stronger than he'd been. It was a
fortnight before he could mount a horse, but his courage kept us strong. He told us that our war had not
ended at the Mummer's Ford, but only begun there, and that every man of ours who'd fallen would be
avenged tenfold.
"By then the fighting had passed by us. The Mountain's men were only the van of Lord Tywin's host.
They crossed the Red Fork in strength and swept up into the riverlands, burning everything in their path.
We were so few that all we could do was harry their rear, but we told each other that we'd join up with
King Robert when he marched west to crush Lord Tywin's rebellion. Only then we heard that Robert
was dead, and Lord Eddard as well, and Cersei Lannister's whelp had ascended the Iron Throne.
"That turned the whole world on its head. We'd been sent out by the King's Hand to deal with outlaws,
you see, but now we were the outlaws, and Lord Tywin was the Hand of the King. There was some
wanted to yield then, but Lord Beric wouldn't hear of it. We were still king's men, he said, and these
were the king's people the lions were savaging. If we could not fight for Robert, we would fight for them,
until every man of us was dead. And so we did, but as we fought something queer happened. For every
man we lost, two showed up to take his place. A few were knights or squires, of gentle birth, but most
were common men fieldhands and fiddlers and innkeeps, servants and shoemakers, even two septons.
Men of all sorts, and women too, children, dogs . . .
"Dogs?" said Arya.
"Aye." Harwin grinned. "One of our lads keeps the meanest dogs you'd ever want to see."


"I wish I had a good mean dog," said Arya wistfully. "A lion-killing dog." She'd had a direwolf once,
Nymeria, but she'd thrown rocks at her until she fled, to keep the queen from killing her. Could a
direwolf kill a lion? she wondered.
It rained again that afternoon, and long into the evening. Thankfully the outlaws had secret friends all
over, so they did not need to camp out in the open or seek shelter beneath some leaky bower, as she
and Hot Pie and Gendry had done so often.
That night they sheltered in a burned, abandoned village. At least it seemed to be abandoned, until
Jack-Be-Lucky blew two short blasts and two long ones on his hunting horn. Then all sorts of people
came crawling out of the ruins and up from secret cellars. They had ale and dried apples and some stale
barley bread, and the outlaws had a goose that Anguy had brought down on the ride, so supper that night
was almost a feast.
Arya was sucking the last bit of meat off a wing when one of the villagers turned to Lem Lemoncloak
and said, "There were men through here not two days past, looking for the Kingslayer,"
Lem snorted. "They'd do better looking in Riverrun. Down in the deepest dungeons, where it's nice and
damp." His nose looked like a squashed apple, red and raw and swollen, and his mood was foul.
"No," another villager said. "He's escaped."
The Kingslayer. Arya could feel the hair on the back of her neck prickling. She held her breath to listen.
"Could that be true?" Tom o' Sevens said.
"I'll not believe it," said the one-eyed man in the rusty pothelm. The other outlaws called him
Jack-Be-Lucky, though losing an eye didn't seem very lucky to Arya. "I've had me a taste o' them
dungeons. How could he escape? "
The villagers could only shrug at that. Greenbeard stroked his thick grey-and-green whiskers and said,
"The wolves will drown in blood if the Kingslayer's loose again. Thoros must be told. The Lord of Light
will show him Lannister in the flames."
"There's a fine fire burning here," said Anguy, smiling.
Greenbeard laughed, and cuffed the archer's ear. "Do I look a priest to you, Archer? When Pello of
Tyrosh peers into the fire, the cinders singe his beard."
Lem cracked his knuckles and said, "Wouldn't Lord Beric love to capture Jaime Lannister, though. . ."
"Would he hang him, Lem?" one of the village women asked. "It'd be half a shame to hang a man as
pretty as that one."
"A trial first!" said Anguy. "Lord Beric always gives them a trial, you know that." He smiled. "Then he
hangs them."
There was laughter all around. Then Tom drew his fingers across the strings of his woodharp and broke
into soft song.


The brothers of the Kingswood, they were an outlaw band.
The forest was their castle, but they roamed across the land.
No man's gold was safe from them, nor any maiden's hand.
Oh, the brothers of the Kingswood, that fearsome outlaw band ...
Warm and dry in a comer between Gendry and Harwin, Arya listened to the singing for a time, then
closed her eyes and drifted off to sleep. She dreamt of home; not Riverrun, but Winterfell. It was not a
good dream, though. She was alone outside the castle, up to her knees in mud. She could see the grey
walls ahead of her, but when she tried to reach the gates every step seemed harder than the one before,
and the castle faded before her, until it looked more like smoke than granite. And there were wolves as
well, gaunt grey shapes stalking through the trees all around her, their eyes shining. Whenever she looked
at them, she remembered the taste of blood.
The next morning they left the road to cut across the fields. The wind was gusting, sending dry brown
leaves swirling around the hooves of their horses, but for once it did not rain. When the sun came out
from behind a cloud, it was so bright Arya had to pull her hood forward to keep it out of her eyes.
She reined up very suddenly. "We are going the wrong way!"
Gendry groaned. "What is it, moss again?"
"Look at the sun," she said. "We're going south!" Arya rummaged in her saddlebag for the map, so she
could show them. "We should never have left the Trident. See." She unrolled the map on her leg. All of
them were looking at her now. "See, there's Riverrun, between the rivers."
"As it happens," said Jack-Be-Lucky, "we know where Riverrun is. Every man o' us."
"You're not going to Riverrun," Lem told her bluntly.
I was almost there, Arya thought. I should have let them take our horses. I could have walked the rest of
the way. She remembered her dream then, and bit her lip.
"Ah, don't look so hurt, child," said Tom Sevenstrings. "No harm will come to you, you have my word
on that."
"The word of a liar!"
"No one lied," said Lem. "We made no promises. It's not for us to say what's to be done with you."
Lem was not the leader, though, no more than Tom; that was Greenbeard, the Tyroshi. Arya turned to
face him. "Take me to Riverrun and you'll be rewarded," she said desperately.
"Little one," Greenbeard answered, "a peasant may skin a common squirrel for his pot, but if he finds a
gold squirrel in his tree he takes it to his lord, or he will wish he did."
"I'm not a squirrel," Arya insisted.
"You are." Greenbeard laughed. "A little gold squirrel who's off to see the lightning lord, whether she


wills it or not. He'll know what's to be done with you. I'll wager he sends you back to your lady mother,
just as you wish."
Tom Sevenstrings nodded. "Aye, that's like Lord Beric. He'll do right by you, see if he don't."
Lord Beric Dondarrion. Arya remembered all she'd heard at Harrenhal, from the Lannisters and the
Bloody Mummers alike. Lord Beric the wisp o' the wood. Lord Beric who'd been killed by Vargo Hoat
and before that by Ser Amory Lorch, and twice by the Mountain That Rides. If he won't send me home
maybe I'll kill him too. "Why do I have to see Lord Beric?" she asked quietly.
"We bring him all our highbom captives," said Anguy.
Captive. Arya took a breath to still her soul. Calm as still water. She glanced at the outlaws on their
horses, and turned her horse's head. Now, quick as a snake, she thought, as she slammed her heels into
the courser's flank. Right between Greenbeard and Jack-Be-Lucky she flew, and caught one glimpse of
Gendry's startled face as his mare moved out of her way. And then she was in the open field, and
running.
North or south, east or west, that made no matter now. She could find the way to Riverrun later, once
she'd lost them. Arya leaned forward in the saddle and urged the horse to a gallop. Behind her the
outlaws were cursing and shouting at her to come back. She shut her ears to the calls, but when she
glanced back over her shoulder four of them were coming after her, Anguy and Harwin and Greenbeard
racing side by side with Lem farther back, his big yellow cloak flapping behind him as he rode. "Swift as
a deer," she told her mount. "Run, now, run."
Arya dashed across brown weedy fields, through waist-high grass and piles of dry leaves that flurried
and flew when her horse galloped past. There were woods to her left, she saw. I can lose them there. A
dry ditch ran along one side of the field, but she leapt it without breaking stride, and plunged in among the
stand of elm and yew and birch trees. A quick peek back showed Anguy and Harwin still hard on her
heels. Greenbeard had fallen behind, though, and she could not see Lem at all. "Faster," she told her
horse, "you can, you can."
Between two elms she rode, and never paused to see which side the moss was growing on. She leapt a
rotten log and swung wide around a monstrous deadfall, jagged with broken branches. Then up a gentle
slope and down the other side, slowing and speeding up again, her horse's shoes striking sparks off the
flintstones underfoot. At the top of the hill she glanced back. Harwin had pushed ahead of Anguy, but
both were coming hard. Greenbeard had fallen further back and seemed to be flagging.
A stream barred her way. She splashed down into it, through water choked with wet brown leaves.
Some clung to her horse's legs as they climbed the other side. The undergrowth was thicker here, the
ground so full of roots and rocks that she had to slow, but she kept as good a pace as she dared.
Another hill before her, this one steeper. Up she went, and down again. How big are these woods? she
wondered. She had the faster horse, she knew that, she had stolen one of Roose Bolton's best from the
stables at Harrenhal, but his speed was wasted here. I need to find the fields again. I need to find a road.
instead she found a game trail. It was narrow and uneven, but it was something. She raced along it,
branches whipping at her face. One snagged her hood and yanked it back, and for half a heartbeat she
feared they had caught her. A vixen burst from the brush as she passed, startled by the fury of her flight.
The game trail brought her to another stream. Or was it the same one? Had she gotten turned around?
There was no time to puzzle it out, she could hear their horses crashing through the trees behind her.
Thorns scratched at her face like the cats she used to chase in King's Landing. Sparrows exploded from
the branches of an alder. But the trees were thinning now, and suddenly she was out of them. Broad level


fields stretched before her, all weeds and wild wheat, sodden and trampled. Arya kicked her horse back
to a gallop. Run, she thought, run for Riverrun, run for home. Had she lost them? She took one quick
look, and there was Harwin six yards back and gaining. No, she thought, no, he can't, not him, it isn't fair.
Both horses were lathered and flagging by the time he came up beside her, reached over, and grabbed
her bridle. Arya was breathing hard herself then. She knew the fight was done. "You ride like a
northman, milady," Harwin said when he'd drawn them to a halt. "Your aunt was the same. Lady Lyanna.
But my father was master of horse, remember."
The look she gave him was full of hurt. "I thought you were my father's man."
"Lord Eddard's dead, milady. I belong to the lightning lord now, and to my brothers."
"What brothers?" Old Hullen had fathered no other sons that Arya could remember.
"Anguy, Lem, Tom o' Sevens, Jack and Greenbeard, all of them. We
mean your brother Robb no ill, milady ... but it's not him we fight for. He has an army all his own, and
many a great lord to bend the knee. The smallfolk have only us." He gave her a searching look. "Can you
understand what I am telling you?"
"Yes." That he was not Robb's man, she understood well enough. And that she was his captive. I could
have stayed with Hot Pie. We could have taken the little boat and sailed it up to Riverrun. She had been
better off as Squab. No one would take Squab captive, or Nan, or Weasel, or Arry the orphan boy. I
was a wolf, she thought, but now I'm just some stupid little lady again.
"Will you ride back peaceful now," Harwin asked her, "or must I tie you up and throw you across your
horse?"
"I'll ride peaceful," she said sullenly. For now
Chapter 18
SAMWELL
Sobbing, Sam took another step. This is the last one, the very last, I can't go on, I can't. But his feet
moved again. One and then the other. They took a step, and then another, and he thought, They're not
my feet, they're someone else's, someone else is walking, it can't be me.
When he looked down he could see them stumbling through the snow; shapeless things, and clumsy. His
boots had been black, he seemed to remember, but the snow had caked around them, and now they
were misshapen white balls. Like two clubfeet made of ice.
it would not stop, the snow. The drifts were up past his knees, and a crust covered his lower legs like a
pair of white greaves. His steps were dragging, lurching. The heavy pack he carried made him look like
some monstrous hunchback. And he was tired, so tired. I can't go on. Mother have mercy, I can't.


Every fourth or fifth step he had to reach down and tug up his swordbelt. He had lost the sword on the
Fist, but the scabbard still weighed down the belt. He did have two knives; the dragonglass dagger Jon
had given him and the steel one he cut his meat with. All that weight dragged heavy, and his belly was so
big and round that if he forgot to tug the belt slipped right off and tangled round his ankles, no matter how
tight he cinched it. He had tried belting it above his belly once, but then it came almost to his armpits.
Grenn had laughed himself sick at the sight of it, and Dolorous Edd had said, "I knew a man once who
wore his sword on a chain around his neck like that. One day he stumbled, and the hilt went up his nose."
Sam was stumbling himself. There were rocks beneath the snow, and
the roots of trees, and sometimes deep holes in the frozen ground. Black Bernarr had stepped in one
and broken his ankle three days past, or maybe four, or ... he did not know how long it had been, truly.
The Lord Commander had put Bernarr on a horse after that.
Sobbing, Sam took another step. It felt more like he was falling down than walking, falling endlessly but
never hitting the ground, just falling forward and forward. I have to stop, it hurts too much. I'm so cold
and tired, I need to sleep, just a little sleep beside a fire, and a bite to eat that isn't frozen.
But if he stopped he died. He knew that. They all knew that, the few who were left. They had been fifty
when they fled the Fist, maybe more, but some had wandered off in the snow, a few wounded had bled
to death . . . and sometimes Sam heard shouts behind him, from the rear guard, and once an awful
scream. When he heard that he had run, twenty yards or thirty, as fast and as far as he could, his
half-frozen feet kicking up the snow, He would be running still if his legs were stronger. They are behind
us, they are still behind us, they are taking us one by one.
Sobbing, Sam took another step. He had been cold so long he was forgetting what it was like to feel
warm. He wore three pairs of hose, two layers of smallclothes beneath a double lambswool tunic, and
over that a thick quilted coat that padded him against the cold steel of his chainmail. Over the hauberk he
had a loose surcoat, over that a triplethick cloak with a bone button that fastened tight under his chins. Its
hood flopped forward over his forehead. Heavy fur mitts covered his hands over thin wool-and-leather
gloves, a scarf was wrapped snugly about the lower half of his face, and he had a tight-fitting fleece-lined
cap to pull down over his ears beneath the hood. And still the cold was in him. His feet especially. He
couldn't even feel them now, but only yesterday they had hurt so bad he could hardly bear to stand on
them, let alone walk. Every step made him want to scream. Was that yesterday? He could not
remember. He had not slept since the Fist, not once since the horn had blown. Unless it was while he
was walking. Could a man walk while he was sleeping? Sam did not know, or else he had forgotten.
Sobbing, he took another step. The snow swirled down around him. Sometimes it fell from a white sky,
and sometimes from a black, but that was all that remained of day and night. He wore it on his shoulders
like a second cloak, and it piled up high atop the pack he carried and made it even heavier and harder to
bear. The small of his back hurt abominably, as if someone had shoved a knife in there and was wiggling
it back and forth with every step. His shoulders were in agony from the weight of the mail. He would
have given most anything to take it off, but he was afraid to. Anyway he would have needed to remove
his cloak and surcoat to get at it, and then the cold would have him.
If only I was stronger ... He wasn't, though, and it was no good wishing. Sam was weak, and fat, so
very fat, he could hardly bear his own weight, the mail was much too much for him. It felt as though it
was rubbing his shoulders raw, despite the layers of cloth and quilt between the steel and skin. The only
thing he could do was cry, and when he cried the tears froze on his cheeks.
Sobbing, he took another step. The crust was broken where he set his feet, otherwise he did not think


he could have moved at all. Off to the left and right, half-seen through the silent trees, torches turned to
vague orange haloes in the falling snow. When he turned his head he could see them, slipping silent
through the wood, bobbing up and down and back and forth. The Old Bear's ring of fire, he reminded
himself, and woe to him who leaves it. As he walked, it seemed as if he were chasing the torches ahead
of him, but they had legs as well, longer and stronger than his, so he could never catch them.
Yesterday he begged for them to let him be one of the torchbearers, even if it meant walking outside of
the column with the darkness pressing close. He wanted the fire, dreamed of the fire. If I had the fire, I
would not be cold. But someone reminded him that he'd had a torch at the start, but he'd dropped it in
the snow and snuffed the fire out. Sam didn't remember dropping any torch, but he supposed it was true.
He was too weak to hold his arm up for long. Was it Edd who reminded him about the torch, or Grenn?
He couldn't remember that either. Fat and weak and useless, even my wits are freezing now He took
another step.
He had wrapped his scarf over his nose and mouth, but it was covered with snot now, and so stiff he
feared it must be frozen to his face. Even breathing was hard, and the air was so cold it hurt to swallow it.
"Mother have mercy," he muttered in a hushed husky voice beneath the frozen mask. "Mother have
mercy, Mother have mercy, Mother have mercy." With each prayer he took another step, dragging his
legs through the snow. "Mother have mercy, Mother have mercy, Mother have mercy."
His own mother was a thousand leagues south, safe with his sisters and his little brother Dickon in the
keep at Horn Hill. She can't hear me, no more than the Mother Above. The Mother was merciful, all the
septons agreed, but the Seven had no power beyond the Wall. This was where the old gods ruled, the
nameless gods of the trees and the wolves and the snows. "Mercy," he whispered then, to whatever
might be listening, old gods or new, or demons too, "oh, mercy, mercy me, mercy me."
Maslyn screamed for mercy. Why had he suddenly remembered that? It was nothing he wanted to
remember. The man had stumbled backward, dropping his sword, pleading, yielding, even yanking off his
thick black glove and thrusting it up before him as if it were a gauntlet. He was still shrieking for quarter
as the wight lifted him in the air by the throat and
near ripped the head off him. The dead have no mercy left in them, and the Others ... no, I mustn't think
of that, don't think, don't remember, just walk, just walk, just walk.
Sobbing, he took another step.
A root beneath the crust caught his toe, and Sam tripped and fell heavily to one knee, so hard he bit his
tongue. He could taste the blood in his mouth, warmer than anything he had tasted since the Fist. This is
the end, he thought. Now that he had fallen he could not seem to find the strength to rise again. He
groped for a tree branch and clutched it tight, trying to pull himself back to his feet, but his stiff legs would
not support him. The mail was too heavy, and he was too fat besides, and too weak, and too tired.
"Back on your feet, Piggy," someone growled as he went past, but Sam paid him no mind. I'll just lie
down in the snow and close my eyes. It wouldn't be so bad, dying here. He couldn't possibly be any
colder, and after a little while he wouldn't be able to feel the ache in his lower back or the terrible pain in
his shoulders, no more than he could feel his feet. I won't be the first to die, they can't say I was.
Hundreds had died on the Fist, they had died all around him, and more had died after, he'd seen them.
Shivering, Sam released his grip on the tree and eased himself down in the snow. It was cold and wet, he
knew, but he could scarcely feel it through all his clothing. He stared upward at the pale white sky as
snowflakes drifted down upon his stomach and his chest and his eyelids. The snow will cover me like a
thick white blanket. It will be warm under the snow, and if they speak of me they'll have to say I died a


man of the Night's Watch. I did. I did. I did my duty. No one can say I forswore myself. I'm fat and I'm
weak and I'm craven, but I did my duty.
The ravens had been his responsibility. That was why they had brought him along. He hadn't wanted to
go, he'd told them so, he'd told them all what a big coward he was. But Maester Aemon was very old
and blind besides, so they had to send Sam to tend to the ravens. The Lord Commander had given him
his orders when they made their camp on the Fist. "You're no fighter. We both know that, boy. If it
happens that we're attacked, don't go trying to prove otherwise, you'll just get in the way. You're to send
a message. And don't come running to ask what the letter should say. Write it out yourself, and send one
bird to Castle Black and another to the Shadow Tower." The Old Bear pointed a gloved finger right in
Sam's face. "I don't care if you're so scared you foul your breeches, and I don't care if a thousand
wildlings are coming over the walls howling for your blood, you get those birds off, or I swear I'll hunt
you through all seven hells and make you damn sorry that you didn't." And Mormont's own raven had
bobbed its head up and down and croaked, "Sorry, sorry, sorry."
Sam was sorry; sorry he hadn't been braver, or stronger, or good with
swords, that he hadn't been a better son to his father and a better brother to Dickon and the girls. He
was sorry to die too, but better men had died on the Fist, good men and true, not squeaking fat boys like
him. At least he would not have the Old Bear hunting him through hell, though. I got the birds off. I did
that right, at least. He had written out the messages ahead of time, short messages and simple, telling of
an attack on the Fist of the First Men, and then he had tucked them away safe in his parchment pouch,
hoping he would never need to send them.
When the horns blew Sam had been sleeping. He thought he was dreaming them at first, but when he
opened his eyes snow was falling on the camp and the black brothers were all grabbing bows and spears
and running toward the ringwall. Chett was the only one nearby, Maester Aemon's old steward with the
face full of boils and the big wen on his neck. Sam had never seen so much fear on a man's face as he
saw on Chett's when that third blast came moaning through the trees. "Help me get the birds off," he
pleaded, but the other steward had turned and run off, dagger in hand. He has the dogs to care for, Sam
remembered. Probably the Lord Commander had given him some orders as well.
His fingers had been so stiff and clumsy in the gloves, and he was shaking from fear and cold, but he
found the parchment pouch and dug out the messages he'd written. The ravens were shrieking furiously,
and when he opened the Castle Black cage one of them flew right in his face. Two more escaped before
Sam could catch one, and when he did it pecked him through his glove, drawing blood. Yet somehow he
held on long enough to attach the little roll of parchment. The warhorn had fallen silent by then, but the
Fist rang with shouted commands and the clatter of steel. "Fly!" Sam called as he tossed the raven into
the air.
The birds in the Shadow Tower cage were screaming and fluttering about so madly that he was afraid to
open the door, but he made himself do it anyway. This time he caught the first raven that tried to escape.
A moment later, it was clawing its way up through the falling snow, bearing word of the attack.
His duty done, he finished dressing with clumsy, frightened fingers, donning his cap and surcoat and
hooded cloak and buckling on his swordbelt, buckling it real tight so it wouldn't fall down. Then he found
his pack and stuffed all his things inside, spare smallclothes and dry socks, the dragonglass arrowheads
and spearhead Jon had given him and the old horn too, his parchments, inks, and quills, the maps he'd
been drawing, and a rock-hard garlic sausage he'd been saving since the Wall. He tied it all up and
shouldered the pack onto his back. The Lord Commander said I wasn't to rush to the ringwall, he
recalled, but he said I shouldn't come running to him either. Sam took a deep breath and realized that he


did not know what to do next.
He remembered turning in a circle, lost, the fear growing inside him as it always did. There were dogs
barking and horses trumpeting, but the snow muffled the sounds and made them seem far away. Sam
could see nothing beyond three yards, not even the torches burning along the low stone wall that ringed
the crown of the hill. Could the torches have gone out? That was too scary to think about. The horn blew
thrice long, three long blasts means Others. The white walkers of the wood, the cold shadows, the
monsters of the tales that made him squeak and tremble as a boy, riding their giant ice-spiders, hungry for
blood ...
Awkwardly he drew his sword, and plodded heavily through the snow holding it. A dog ran past
barking, and he saw some of the men from the Shadow Tower, big bearded men with longaxes and
eight-foot spears. He felt safer for their company, so he followed them to the wall. When he saw the
torches still burning atop the ring of stones a shudder of relief went through him.
The black brothers stood with swords and spears in hand, watching the snow fall, waiting. Ser Mallador
Locke went by on his horse, wearing a snow-speckled helm. Sam stood well back behind the others,
looking for Grenn or Dolorous Edd. If I have to die, let me die beside my friends, he remembered
thinking. But all the men around him were strangers, Shadow Tower men under the command of the
ranger named Blane.
"Here they come," he heard a brother say.
"Notch," said Blane, and twenty black arrows were pulled from as many quivers, and notched to as
many bowstrings.
"Gods be good, there's hundreds," a voice said softly.
"Draw," Blane said, and then, "hold." Sam could not see and did not want to see. The men of the Night's
Watch stood behind their torches, waiting with arrows pulled back to their ears, as something came up
that dark, slippery slope through the snow. "Hold," Blane said again, "hold, hold." And then, "Loose."
The arrows whispered as they flew.
A ragged cheer went up from the men along the ringwall, but it died quickly. "They're not stopping,
m'lord," a man said to Blane, and another shouted, "More! Look there, coming from the trees, " and yet
another said, "Gods ha' mercy, they's crawling. They's almost here, they's on us!" Sam had been backing
away by then, shaking like the last leaf on the tree when the wind kicks up, as much from cold as from
fear. it had been very cold that night. Even colder than now The snow feels almost warm. I feel better
now A little rest was all I needed. Maybe in a little while I'll be strong enough to walk again. In a little
while.
A horse stepped past his head, a shaggy grey beast with snow in its mane and hooves crusted with ice.
Sam watched it come and watched it go. Another appeared from out of the falling snow, with a man in
black
leading it. When he saw Sam in his path he cursed him and led the horse around. I wish I had a horse, he
thought. ff I had a horse I could keep going. I could sit, and even sleep some in the saddle. Most of their
mounts had been lost at the Fist, though, and those that remained carried their food, their torches, and
their wounded. Sam wasn't wounded. Only fat and weak, and the greatest craven in the Seven
Kingdoms.


He was such a coward. Lord Randyll, his father, had always said so, and he had been right. Sam was
his heir, but he had never been worthy, so his father had sent him away to the Wall. His little brother
Dickon would inherit the Tarly lands and castle, and the greatsword Heartsbane that the lords of Horn
Hill had bome so proudly for centuries. He wondered whether Dickon would shed a tear for his brother
who died in the snow, somewhere off beyond the edge of the world. Why should he? A coward's not
worth weeping over. He had heard his father tell his mother as much, half a hundred times. The Old Bear
knew it too.
"Fire arrows," the Lord Commander roared that night on the Fist, when he appeared suddenly astride
his horse, "give them flame." It was then he noticed Sam there quaking. "Tarly! Get out of here! Your
place is with the ravens."
"I ... I ... I got the messages away."
"Good." On Mormont's shoulder his own raven echoed, "Good, good.
The Lord Commander looked huge in fur and mail. Behind his black iron visor, his eyes were fierce.
"You're in the way here. Go back to your cages. If I need to send another message, I don't want to have
to find you first. See that the birds are ready." He did not wait for a response, but turned his horse and
trotted around the ring, shouting, "Fire! Give them fire!"
Sam did not need to be told twice. He went back to the birds, as fast as his fat legs could carry him. I
should write the message ahead of time, he thought, so we can get the birds away as fast as need be. It
took him longer than it should have to light his little fire, to warm the frozen ink. He sat beside it on a rock
with quill and parchment, and wrote his messages.
Attacked amidst snow and cold, but we've thrown them back with fire arrows, he wrote, as he heard
Thoren Smallwood's voice ring out with a command of, "Notch, draw ... loose." The flight of arrows
made a sound as sweet as a mother's prayer. "Bum, you dead bastards, bum," Dywen sang out, cackling.
The brothers cheered and cursed. All safe, he wrote. We remain on the Fist of the First Men. Sam
hoped they were better archers than him.
He put that note aside and found another blank parchment. Still fighting on the Fist, amidst heavy snow,
he wrote when someone shouted, "They're still coming." Result uncertain. "Spears," someone said. It
might have been Ser Mallador, but Sam could not swear to it. Wights attacked us on the Fist, in snow,
he wrote, but we drove them off with fire. He turned his head. Through the drifting snow, all he could see
was the huge fire at the center of the camp, with mounted men moving restlessly around it. The reserve,
he knew, ready to ride down anything that breached the ringwall. They had armed themselves with
torches in place of swords, and were lighting them in the flames.
Wights all around us, he wrote, when he heard the shouts from the north face. Coming up from north
and south at once. Spears and swords don't stop them, only fire. "Loose, loose, loose," a voice
screamed in the night, and another shouted, "Bloody huge," and a third voice said, "A giant!" and a fourth
insisted, "A bear, a bear!" A horse shrieked and the hounds began to bay, and there was so much
shouting that Sam couldn't make out the voices anymore. He wrote faster, note after note. Dead
wildlings, and a giant, or maybe a bear, on us, all around. He heard the crash of steel on wood, which
could only mean one thing. Wights over the ringwall. Fighting inside the camp. A dozen mounted brothers
pounded past him toward the east wall, burning brands streaming flames in each rider's hand. Lord
Commander Mormont is meeting them with fire. We've won. We're winning. We're holding our own.


We're cutting our way free and retreating for the Wall. We're trapped on the Fist, hard pressed.
One of the Shadow Tower men came staggering out of the darkness to fall at Sam's feet. He crawled
within a foot of the fire before he died. Lost, Sam wrote, the battle's lost. We're all lost.
Why must he remember the fight at the Fist? He didn't want to remember. Not that. He tried to make
himself remember his mother, or his little sister Talla, or that girl Gilly at Craster's Keep. Someone was
shaking him by the shoulder. "Get up," a voice said. "Sam, you can't go to sleep here. Get up and keep
walking."
I wasn't asleep, I was remembering. "Go away," he said, his words frosting in the cold air. "I'm well. I
want to rest."
"Get up." Grenn's voice, harsh and husky. He loomed over Sam, his blacks crusty with snow. "There's
no resting, the Old Bear said. You'll die."
"Grenn." He smiled. "No, truly, I'm good here. You just go on. I'll catch you after I've rested a bit
longer."
"You won't." Grenn's thick brown beard was frozen all around his mouth. It made him look like some
old man. "You'll freeze, or the Others will get you. Sam, get up!"
The night before they left the Wall, Pyp had teased Grenn the way he did, Sam remembered, smiling and
saying how Grenn was a good choice for the ranging, since he was too stupid to be terrified. Grenn hotly
denied
it until he realized what he was saying. He was stocky and thick-necked and strong - Ser Alliser Thorne
had called him "Aurochs," the same way he called Sam "Ser Piggy" and Jon "Lord Snow" - but he had
always treated Sam nice enough. That was only because of Jon, though. If it weren't for Jon, none of
them would have liked me. And now Jon was gone, lost in the Skirling Pass with Qhorin Halfhand, most
likely dead. Sam would have cried for him, but those tears would only freeze as well, and he could
scarcely keep his eyes open now.
A tall brother with a torch stopped beside them, and for a wonderful moment Sam felt the warmth on his
face. "Leave him," the man said to Grenn. "If they can't walk, they're done. Save your strength for
yourself, Grenn."
"He'll get up," Grenn replied. "He only needs a hand."
The man moved on, taking the blessed warmth with him. Grenn tried to pull Sam to his feet. "That hurts,"
he complained. "Stop it. Grenn, you're hurting my arm. Stop it."
"You're too bloody heavy." Grenn jammed his hands into Sam's armpits, gave a grunt, and hauled him
upright. But the moment he let go, the fat boy sat back down in the snow. Grenn kicked him, a solid
thump that cracked the crust of snow around his boot and sent it flying everywhere. "Get up!" He kicked
him again. "Get up and walk. You have to walk."
Sam fell over sideways, curling up into a tight ball to protect himself from the kicks. He hardly felt them
through all his wool and leather and mail, but even so, they hurt. I thought Grenn was my friend. You
shouldn't kick your friends. Why won't they let me be? I just need to rest, that's all, to rest and sleep
some, and maybe die a little.


"if you take the torch, I can take the fat boy."
Suddenly he was jerked up into the cold air, away from his sweet soft snow; he was floating. There was
an arm under his knees, and another one under his back. Sam raised his head and blinked. A face
loomed close, a broad brutal face with a flat nose and small dark eyes and a thicket of coarse brown
beard. He had seen the face before, but it took him a moment to remember. Paul. Small Paul. Melting ice
ran down into his eyes from the heat of the torch. "Can you carry him?" he heard Grenn ask.
"I carried a calf once was heavier than him. I carried him down to his mother so he could get a drink of
milk."
Sam's head bobbed up and down with every step that Small Paul took. "Stop it," he muttered, "put me
down, I'm not a baby. I'm a man of the Night's Watch." He sobbed. "Just let me die."
"Be quiet, Sam," said Grenn. "Save your strength. Think about your sisters and brother. Maester
Aemon. Your favorite foods. Sing a song if you like."
"Aloud?"
"In your head."
Sam knew a hundred songs, but when he tried to think of one he couldn't. The words had all gone from
his head. He sobbed again and said, "I don't know any songs, Grenn. I did know some, but now I don't."
"Yes you do," said Grenn. "How about 'The Bear and the Maiden Fair' everybody knows that one. A
bear there was, a bear, a bear! All black and brown and covered with hair!"
"No, not that one," Sam pleaded. The bear that had come up the Fist had no hair left on its rotted flesh.
He didn't want to think about bears. "No songs. Please, Grerm."
"Think about your ravens, then."
"They were never mine." They were the Lord Commander's ravens, the ravens of the Night's Watch.
"They belonged to Castle Black and the Shadow Tower."
Small Paul frowned. "Chett said I could have the Old Bear's raven, the one that talks. I saved food for it
and everything." He shook his head. "I forgot, though. I left the food where I hid it." He plodded onward,
pale white breath coming from his mouth with every step, then suddenly said, "Could I have one of your
ravens? just the one. I'd never let Lark eat it."
"They're gone," said Sam. "I'm sorry." So sorry. "They're flying back to the Wall now." He had set the
birds free when he'd heard the warhorns sound once more, calling the Watch to horse. Two short blasts
and a long one, that was the call to mount up. But there was no reason to mount, unless to abandon the
Fist, and that meant the battle was lost. The fear bit him so strong then that it was all Sam could do to
open the cages. Only as he watched the last raven flap up into the snowstorm did he realize that he had
forgotten to send any of the messages he'd written.
"No," he'd squealed, "oh, no, oh, no." The snow fell and the horns blew; ahooo ahooo
ahooooooooooooooooooo, they cried, to horse, to horse, to horse. Sam saw two ravens perched on a
rock and ran after them, but the birds flapped off lazily through the swirling snow, in opposite directions.


He chased one, his breath puffing out his nose in thick white clouds, stumbled, and found himself ten feet
from the ringwall.
After that ... he remembered the dead coming over the stones with arrows in their faces and through
their throats. Some were all in ringmail and some were almost naked. . . wildlings, most of them, but a
few wore faded blacks. He remembered one of the Shadow Tower men shoving his spear through a
wight's pale soft belly and out his back, and how the thing staggered right up the shaft and reached out his
black hands and twisted the brother's head around until blood came out his mouth. That was when his
bladder let go the first time, he was almost sure.
He did not remember running, but he must have, because the next he
knew he was near the fire half a camp away, with old Ser Ottyn Wythers and some archers. Ser Ottyn
was on his knees in the snow, staring at the chaos around them, until a riderless horse came by and
kicked him in the face. The archers paid him no mind. They were loosing fire arrows at shadows in the
dark. Sam saw one wight hit, saw the flames engulf it, but there were a dozen more behind it, and a huge
pale shape that must have been the bear, and soon enough the bowmen had no arrows.
And then Sam found himself on a horse. It wasn't his own horse, and he never recalled mounting up
either. Maybe it was the horse that had smashed Ser Ottyn's face in. The horns were still blowing, so he
kicked the horse and turned him toward the sound.
In the midst of carnage and chaos and blowing snow, he found Dolorous Edd sitting on his garron with a
plain black banner on a spear. "Sam," Edd said when he saw him, "would you wake me, please? I am
having this terrible nightmare."
More men were mounting up every moment. The warhorns called them back. Ahooo ahooo
ahooooooooooooooooooo. "They're over the west wall, m'lord," Thoren Smallwood screamed at the
Old Bear, as he fought to control his horse. "I'll send reserves. . ."
"NO!" Mormont had to bellow at the top of his lungs to be heard over the horns. "Call them back, we
have to cut our way out." He stood in his stirrups, his black cloak snapping in the wind, the fire shining off
his armor. "Spearhead!" he roared. "Form wedge, we ride. Down the south face, then east!"
"My lord, the south slope's crawling with them!"
"The others are too steep," Mormont said. "We have -
His garron screamed and reared and almost threw him as the bear came staggering through the snow.
Sam pissed himself all over again. I didn't think I had any more left inside me. The bear was dead, pale
and rotting, its fur and skin all sloughed off and half its right arm burned to bone, yet still it came on. Only
its eyes lived. Bright blue, just as fon said. They shone like frozen stars. Thoren Smallwood charged, his
longsword shining all orange and red from the light of the fire. His swing near took the bear's head off.
And then the bear took his.
"RIDE!" the Lord Commander shouted, wheeling.
They were at the gallop by the time they reached the ring. Sam had always been too frightened to jump a
horse before, but when the low stone wall loomed up before him he knew he had no choice. He kicked
and closed his eyes and whimpered, and the garron took him over, somehow, somehow, the garron took
him over. The rider to his right came crashing down in a tangle of steel and leather and screaming


horseflesh, and then the wights were swarming over him and the wedge was closing up. They plunged
down the hillside at a run, through clutching black
hands and burning blue eyes and blowing snow. Horses stumbled and rolled, men were swept from their
saddles, torches spun through the air, axes and swords hacked at dead flesh, and Samwell Tarly sobbed,
clutching desperately to his horse with a strength he never knew he had.
He was in the middle of the flying spearhead with brothers on either side, and before and behind him as
well. A dog ran with them for a ways, bounding down the snowy slope and in and out among the horses,
but it could not keep up. The wights stood their ground and were ridden down and trampled underhoof.
Even as they fell they clutched at swords and stirrups and the legs of passing horses. Sam saw one claw
open a garron's belly with its right hand while it clung to the saddle with its left.
Suddenly the trees were all about them, and Sam was splashing through a frozen stream with the sounds
of slaughter dwindling behind. He turned, breathless with relief ... until a man in black leapt from the brush
and yanked him out of the saddle. Who he was, Sam never saw; he was up in an instant, and galloping
away the next. When he tried to run after the horse, his feet tangled in a root and he fell hard on his face
and lay weeping like a baby until Dolorous Edd found him there.
That was his last coherent memory of the Fist of the First Men. Later, hours later, he stood shivering
among the other survivors, half mounted and half afoot. They were miles from the Fist by then, though
Sam did not remember how. Dywen had led down five packhorses, heavy laden with food and oil and
torches, and three had made it this far. The Old Bear made them redistribute the loads, so the loss of any
one horse and its provisions would not be such a catastrophe. He took garrons from the healthy men and
gave them to the wounded, organized the walkers, and set torches to guard their flanks and rear. All I
need do is walk, Sam told himself, as he took that first step toward home. But before an hour was gone
he had begun to struggle, and to lag ...
They were lagging now as well, he saw. He remembered Pyp saying once how Small Paul was the
strongest man in the Watch. He must be, to carry me. Yet even so, the snow was growing deeper, the
ground more treacherous, and Paul's strides had begun to shorten. More horsemen passed, wounded
men who looked at Sam with dull incurious eyes. Some torch bearers went by as well. "You're falling
behind," one told them. The next agreed. "No one's like to wait for you, Paul. Leave the pig for the dead
men."
"He promised I could have a bird," Small Paul said, even though Sam hadn't, not truly. They aren't mine
to give. "I want me a bird that talks, and eats corn from my hand."
"Bloody fool," the torch man said. Then he was gone.
It was a while after when Grenn stopped suddenly. "We're alone," he
said in a hoarse voice. "I can't see the other torches. Was that the rear guard? "
Small Paul had no answer for him. The big man gave a grunt and sank to his knees. His arms trembled
as he lay Sam gently in the snow. "I can't carry you no more. I would, but I can't." He shivered violently.
The wind sighed through the trees, driving a fine spray of snow into their faces. The cold was so bitter
that Sam felt naked. He looked for the other torches, but they were gone, every one of them. There was
only the one Grenn carried, the flames rising from it like pale orange silks. He could see through them, to
the black beyond. That torch will bum out soon, he thought, and we are all alone, without food or friends


or fire.
But that was wrong. They weren't alone at all.
The lower branches of the great green sentinel shed their burden of snow with a soft wet plop. Grenn
spun, thrusting out his torch. "Who goes there?" A horse's head emerged from the darkness. Sam felt a
moment's relief, until he saw the horse. Hoarfrost covered it like a sheen of frozen sweat, and a nest of
stiff black entrails dragged from its open belly. On its back was a rider pale as ice. Sam made a
whimpery sound deep in his throat. He was so scared he might have pissed himself all over again, but the
cold was in him, a cold so savage that his bladder felt frozen solid. The Other slid gracefully from the
saddle to stand upon the snow. Sword-slim it was, and milky white. Its armor rippled and shifted as it
moved, and its feet did not break the crust of the new-fallen snow.
Small Paul unslung the long-hafted axe strapped across his back. "Why'd you hurt that horse? That was
Mawney's horse."
Sam groped for the hilt of his sword, but the scabbard was empty. He had lost it on the Fist, he
remembered too late.
"Get away!" Grenn took a step, thrusting the torch out before him. "Away, or you bum." He poked at it
with the flames.
The Other's sword gleamed with a faint blue glow. it moved toward Grenn, lightning quick, slashing.
When the ice blue blade brushed the flames, a screech stabbed Sam's ears sharp as a needle. The head
of the torch tumbled sideways to vanish beneath a deep drift of snow, the fire snuffed out at once. And all
Grenn held was a short wooden stick. He flung it at the Other, cursing, as Small Paul charged in with his
axe.
The fear that filled Sam then was worse than any fear he had ever felt before, and Samwell Tarly knew
every kind of fear. "Mother have mercy," he wept, forgetting the old gods in his terror. "Father protect
me, oh oh . . . " His fingers found his dagger and he filled his hand with that.
The wights had been slow clumsy things, but the Other was light as snow on the wind. it slid away from
Paul's axe, armor rippling, and its crystal sword twisted and spun and slipped between the iron rings of
Paul's mail, through leather and wool and bone and flesh. It came out his back with a hissssssssssss and
Sam heard Paul say, "Oh," as he lost the axe. Impaled, his blood smoking around the sword, the big man
tried to reach his killer with his hands and almost had before he fell. The weight of him tore the strange
pale sword from the Other's grip.
Do it now Stop crying and fight, you baby. Fight, craven. It was his father he heard, it was Alliser
Thorne, it was his brother Dickon and the boy Rast. Craven, craven, craven. He giggled hysterically,
wondering if they would make a wight of him, a huge fat white wight always tripping over its own dead
feet. Do it, Sam. Was that Jon, now? Jon was dead. You can do it, you can, just do it. And then he was
stumbling forward, falling more than running, really, closing his eyes and shoving the dagger blindly out
before him with both hands. He heard a crack, like the sound ice makes when it breaks beneath a man's
foot, and then a screech so shrill and sharp that he went staggering backward with his hands over his
muffled ears, and fell hard on his arse.
When he opened his eyes the Other's armor was running down its legs in rivulets as pale blue blood
hissed and steamed around the black dragonglass dagger in its throat. It reached down with two


bone-white hands to pull out the knife, but where its fingers touched the obsidian they smoked.
Sam rolled onto his side, eyes wide as the Other shrank and puddled, dissolving away. In twenty
heartbeats its flesh was gone, swirling away in a fine white mist. Beneath were bones like milkglass, pale
and shiny, and they were melting too. Finally only the dragonglass dagger remained, wreathed in steam as
if it were alive and sweating. Grenn bent to scoop it up and flung it down again at once. "Mother, that's
cold."
"Obsidian." Sam struggled to his knees. "Dragonglass, they call it. Dragonglass. Dragon glass." He
giggled, and cried, and doubled over to heave his courage out onto the snow.
Grenn pulled Sam to his feet, checked Small Paul for a pulse and closed his eyes, then snatched up the
dagger again. This time he was able to hold it.
"You keep it," Sam said. "You're not craven like me."
"So craven you killed an Other." Grenn pointed with the knife. "Look there, through the trees. Pink light.
Dawn, Sam. Dawn. That must be east. If we head that way, we should catch Mormont."
"If you say." Sam kicked his left foot against a tree, to knock off all the snow. Then the right. "I'll try."
Grimacing, he took a step. "I'll try hard." And then another.
Chapter 19
Tyrion
Lord Tywin's chain of hands made a golden glitter against the deep wine velvet of his tunic. The Lords
Tyrell, Redwyne, and Rowan gathered round him as he entered. He greeted each in turn, spoke a quiet
word to Varys, kissed the High Septon's ring and Cersei's cheek, clasped the hand of Grand Maester
Pycelle, and seated himself in the king's place at the head of the long table, between his daughter and his
brother.
Tyrion had claimed Pycelle's old place at the foot, propped up by cushions so he could gaze down the
length of the table. Dispossessed, Pycelle had moved up next to Cersei, about as far from the dwarf as
he could get without claiming the king's seat. The Grand Maester was a shambling skeleton, leaning
heavily on a twisted cane and shaking as he walked, a few white hairs sprouting from his long chicken's
neck in place of his once-luxuriant white beard. Tyrion gazed at him without remorse.
The others had to scramble for seats: Lord Mace Tyrell, a heavy, robust man with curling brown hair
and a spadeshaped beard well salted with white; Paxter Redwyne of the Arbor, stoop-shouldered and
thin, his bald head fringed by tufts of orange hair; Mathis Rowan, Lord of Goldengrove, clean-shaven,
stout, and sweating; the High Septon, a frail man with wispy white chin hair. Too many strange faces,
Tyrion thought, too many new players. The game changed while I lay rotting in my bed, and no one will
tell me the rules.
Oh, the lords had been courteous enough, though he could tell how uncomfortable it made them to look
at him. "That chain of yours, that was cunning," Mace Tyrell had said in a jolly tone, and Lord Redwyne


nodded and said, "Quite so, quite so, my lord of Highgarden speaks for all of us," and very cheerfully
too.
Tell it to the people of this city, Tyrion thought bitterly. Tell it to the bloody singers, with their songs of
Renly's ghost.
His uncle Kevan had been the warmest, going so far as to kiss his cheek and say, "Lancel has told me
how brave you were, Tyrion. He speaks very highly of you."
He'd better, or I'll have a few things to say of him. He made himself smile and say, "My good cousin is
too kind. His wound is healing, I trust? "
Ser Kevan frowned. "One day he seems stronger, the next ... it is worrisome. Your sister often visits his
sickbed, to lift his spirits and pray for him."
But is she praying that he lives, or dies? Cersei had made shameless use of their cousin, both in and out
of bed; a little secret she no doubt hoped Lancel would carry to his grave now that Father was here and
she no longer had need of him. Would she go so far as to murder him, though? To look at her today, you
would never suspect Cersei was capable of such ruthlessness. She was all charm, flirting with Lord Tyrell
as they spoke of Joffrey's wedding feast, complimenting Lord Redwyne on the valor of his twins,
softening gruff Lord Rowan with jests and smiles, making pious noises at the High Septon. "Shall we
begin with the wedding arrangements?" she asked as Lord Tywin took his seat.
"No," their father said. "With the war. Varys."
The eunuch smiled a silken smile. "I have such delicious tidings for you all, my lords. Yesterday at dawn
our brave Lord Randyll caught Robett Glover outside Duskendale and trapped him against the sea.
Losses were heavy on both sides, but in the end our loyal men prevailed. Ser Helman Tallhart is reported
dead, with a thousand others. Robett Glover leads the survivors back toward Harrenhal in bloody
disarray, little dreaming he will find valiant Ser Gregor and his stalwarts athwart his path."
"Gods be praised!" said Paxter Redwyne. "A great victory for King Joffrey! "
What did Joffrey have to do with it? thought Tyrion.
"And a terrible defeat for the north, certainly," observed Littlefinger, "yet one in which Robb Stark
played no part. The Young Wolf remains unbeaten in the field."
"What do we know of Stark's plans and movements?" asked Mathis Rowan, ever blunt and to the point.
"He has run back to Riverrun with his plunder, abandoning the castles he took in the west," announced
Lord Tywin. "Our cousin Ser Daven is reforming the remnants of his late father's army at Lannisport.
When they are ready he shall join Ser Forley Prester at the Golden Tooth. As
soon as the Stark boy starts north, Ser Forley and Ser Daven will descend on Riverrun."
"You are certain Lord Stark means to go north?" Lord Rowan asked. "Even with the ironmen at Moat
Cailin?"
Mace Tyrell spoke up. "Is there anything as pointless as a king without a kingdom? No, it's plain, the


boy must abandon the riverlands, join his forces to Roose Bolton's once more, and throw all his strength
against Moat Cailin. That is what I would do."
Tyrion had to bite his tongue at that. Robb Stark had won more battles in a year than the Lord of
Highgarden had in twenty. Tyrell's reputation rested on one indecisive victory over Robert Baratheon at
Ashford, in a battle largely won by Lord Tarly's van before the main host had even arrived. The siege of
Storm's End, where Mace Tyrell actually did hold the command, had dragged on a year to no result, and
after the Trident was fought, the Lord of Highgarden had meekly dipped his banners to Eddard Stark.
"I ought to write Robb Stark a stern letter," Littlefinger was saying. "I understand his man Bolton is
stabling goats in my high hall, it's really quite unconscionable."
Ser Kevan Lannister cleared his throat. "As regards the Starks ... Balon Greyjoy, who now styles
himself King of the Isles and the North, has written to us offering terms of alliance."
"He ought to be offering fealty," snapped Cersei. "By what right does he call himself king?"
"By right of conquest," Lord Tywin said. "King Balon has strangler's fingers round the Neck. Robb
Stark's heirs are dead, Winterfell is fallen, and the ironmen hold Moat Cailin, Deepwood Motte, and
most of the Stony Shore. King Balon's longships command the sunset sea, and are well placed to menace
Lannisport, Fair Isle, and even Highgarden, should we provoke him."
"And if we accept this alliance?" inquired Lord Mathis Rowan. "What terms does he propose?"
"That we recognize his kingship and grant him everything north of the Neck."
Lord Redwyne laughed. "What is there north of the Neck that any sane man would want? If Greyjoy will
trade swords and sails for stone and snow, I say do it, and count ourselves lucky."
"Truly," agreed Mace Tyrell. "That's what I would do. Let King Balon finish the northmen whilst we
finish Stannis."
Lord Tywin's face gave no hint as to his feelings. "There is Lysa Arryn to deal with as well. Jon Arryn's
widow, Hoster Tully's daughter, Catelyn Stark's sister ... whose husband was conspiring with Stannis
Baratheon at the time of his death."
"Oh," said Mace Tyrell cheerfully, "women have no stomach for war. Let her be, I say, she's not like to
trouble us."
"I agree," said Redwyne. "The Lady Lysa took no part in the fighting, nor has she committed any overt
acts of treason."
Tyrionstirred. "She did throw mein a cell andputme on trial for mylife," he pointed out, with a certain
amount of rancor. "Nor has she returned to King's Landing to swear fealty to Joff, as she was
commanded. My lords, grant me the men, and I will sort out Lysa Arryn." He could think of nothing he
would enjoy more, except perhaps strangling Cersei. Sometimes he still dreamed of the Eyrie's sky cells,
and woke drenched in cold sweat.
Mace Tyrell's smile was jovial, but behind it Tyrion sensed contempt. "Perhaps you'd best leave the
fighting to fighters," said the Lord of Highgarden. "Better men than you have lost great armies in the
Mountains of the Moon, or shattered them against the Bloody Gate. We know your worth, my lord, no


need to tempt fate."
Tyrion pushed off his cushions, bristling, but his father spoke before he could lash back. "I have other
tasks in mind for Tyrion. I believe Lord Petyr may hold the key to the Eyrie."
"Oh, I do," said Littleflnger, "I have it here between my legs." There was mischief in his grey-green eyes.
"My lords, with your leave, I propose to travel to the Vale and there woo and win Lady Lysa Arryn.
Once I am her consort, I shall deliver you the Vale of Arryn without a drop of blood being spilled."
Lord Rowan looked doubtful. "Would Lady Lysa have you?"
"She's had me a few times before, Lord Mathis, and voiced no complaints."
"Bedding," said Cersei, "is not wedding. Even a cow like Lysa Arryn might be able to grasp the
difference."
"To be sure. It would not have been fitting for a daughter of Riverrun to marry one so far below her."
Littlefinger spread his hands. "Now, though ... a match between the Lady of the Eyrie and the Lord of
Harrenhal is not so unthinkable, is it?"
Tyrion noted the look that passed between Paxter Redwyne and Mace Tyrell. "It might serve," Lord
Rowan said, "if you are certain that you can keep the woman loyal to the King's Grace."
"My lords," pronounced the High Septon, "autumn is upon us, and all men of good heart are weary of
war. If Lord Baelish can bring the Vale back into the king's peace without more shedding of blood, the
gods will surely bless him."
"But can he?" asked Lord Redwyne. "Jon Arryn's son is Lord of the Eyrie now. The Lord Robert."
"Only a boy," said Littleflnger. "I will see that he grows to be Joffrey's most loyal subject, and a fast
friend to us all."
Tyrion studied the slender man with the pointed beard and irreverent grey-green eyes. Lord of Harrenhal
an empty honor? Bugger that, Father. Even if he never sets foot in the castle, the title makes this match
possible, as he's known all along.
"We have no lack of foes," said Ser Kevan Lannister. "If the Eyrie can be kept out of the war, all to the
good. I am of a mind to see what Lord Petyr can accomplish."
Ser Kevan was his brother's vanguard in council, Tyrion knew from long experience; he never had a
thought that Lord Tywin had not had first. It has all been settled beforehand, he concluded, and this
discussion's no more than show
The sheep were bleating their agreement, unaware of how neatly they'd been shorn, so it fell to Tyrion to
object. "How will the crown pay its debts without Lord Petyr? He is our wizard of coin, and we have no
one to replace him."
Littlefinger smiled. "My little friend is too kind. All I do is count coppers, as King Robert used to say.
Any clever tradesman could do as well ... and a Lannister, blessed with the golden touch of Casterly
Rock, will no doubt far surpass me."


"A Lannister?" Tyrion had a bad feeling about this.
Lord Tywin's gold-flecked eyes met his son's mismatched ones. "You are admirably suited to the task, I
believe."
"Indeed!" Ser Kevan said heartily. "I've no doubt you'll make a splendid master of coin, Tyrion."
Lord Tywin turned back to Littlefinger. "If Lysa Arryn will take you for a husband and return to the
king's peace, we shall restore the Lord Robert to the honor of Warden of the East. How soon might you
leave?"
"On the morrow, if the winds permit. There's a Braavosi galley standing out past the chain, taking on
cargo by boat. The Merling King. I'll see her captain about a berth."
"You will miss the king's wedding," said Mace Tyrell.
Petyr Baelish gave a shrug. "Tides and brides wait on no man, my lord. Once the autumn storms begin
the voyage will be much more hazardous. Drowning would definitely diminish my charms as a
bridegroom."
Lord Tyrell chuckled. "True. Best you do not linger."
"May the gods speed you on your way," the High Septon said. "All King's Landing shall pray for your
success."
Lord Redwyne pinched at his nose. "May we return to the matter of the Greyjoy alliance? In my view,
there is much to be said for it. Greyjoy's longships will augment my own fleet and give us sufficient
strength at sea to assault Dragonstone and end Stannis Baratheon's pretensions."
"King Balon's longships are occupied for the nonce," Lord Tywin said politely, "as are we. Greyjoy
demands half the kingdom as the price of
alliance, but what will he do to earn it? Fight the Starks? He is doing that already. Why should we pay
for what he has given us for free? The best thing to do about our lord of Pyke is nothing, in my view.
Granted enough time, a better option may well present itself. One that does not require the king to give
up half his kingdom."
Tyrion watched his father closely. There's something he's not saying. He remembered those important
letters Lord Tywin had been writing, the night Tyrion had demanded Casterly Rock. What was it he
said? Some battles are won with swords and spears, others with quills and ravens ... He wondered who
the "better option" was, and what sort of price he was demanding.
"Perhaps we ought move on to the wedding," Ser Kevan said.
The High Septon spoke of the preparations being made at the Great Sept of Baelor, and Cersei detailed
the plans she had been making for the feast. They would feed a thousand in the throne room, but many
more outside in the yards. The outer and middle wards would be tented in silk, with tables of food and
casks of ale for all those who could not be accommodated within the hall.
"Your Grace," said Grand Maester Pycelle, "in regard to the number of guests ... we have had a raven
from Sunspear. Three hundred Domishmen are riding toward King's Landing as we speak, and hope to


arrive before the wedding."
"How do they come?" asked Mace Tyrell gruffly. "They have not asked leave to cross my lands." His
thick neck had turned a dark red, Tyrion noted. Dornishmen and Highgardeners had never had great love
for one another; over the centuries, they had fought border wars beyond count, and raided back and
forth across mountains and marches even when at peace. The enmity had waned a bit after Dome had
become part of the Seven Kingdoms ... until the Domish prince they called the Red Viper had crippled
the young heir of Highgarden in a tourney. This could be ticklish, the dwarf thought, waiting to see how
his father would handle it.
"Prince Doran comes at my son's invitation," Lord Tywin said calmly, "not only to join in our celebration,
but to claim his seat on this council, and the justice Robert denied him for the murder of his sister Elia and
her children."
Tyrion watched the faces of the Lords Tyrell, Redwyne, and Rowan, wondering if any of the three
would be bold enough to say, "But Lord Tywin, wasn't it you who presented the bodies to Robert, all
wrapped up in Lannister cloaks?" None of them did, but it was there on their faces all the same.
Redwyne does not give a fig, he thought, but Rowan looks fit to gag.
"When the king is wed to your Margaery and Myrcella to Prince Trystane, we shall all be one great
House," Ser Kevan reminded Mace Tyrell.
"The enmities of the past should remain there, would you not agree, my lord? "
"This is my daughter's wedding
"- and my grandson's," said Lord Tywin firmly. "No place for old quarrels, surely? "
"I have no quarrel with Doran Martell," insisted Lord Tyrell, though his tone was more than a little
grudging. "If he wishes to cross the Reach in peace, he need only ask my leave."
Small chance of that, thought Tyrion. He'll climb the Boneway, turn east near Summerhall, and come up
the kingsroad.
"Three hundred Dornishmen need not trouble our plans," said Cersei. "We can feed the men-at-arms in
the yard, squeeze some extra benches into the throne room for the lordlings and highborn knights, and
find Prince Doran a place of honor on the dais."
Not by me, was the message Tyrion saw in Mace Tyrell's eyes, but the Lord of Highgarden made no
reply but a curt nod.
"Perhaps we can move to a more pleasant task," said Lord Tywin. "The fruits of victory await division."
"What could be sweeter?" said Littlefinger, who had already swallowed his own fruit, Harrenhal.
Each lord had his own demands; this castle and that village, tracts of lands, a small river, a forest, the
wardship of certain minors left fatherless by the battle. Fortunately, these fruits were plentiful, and there
were orphans and castles for all. Varys had lists. Forty-seven lesser lordlings and six hundred nineteen
knights had lost their lives beneath the fiery heart of Stannis and his Lord of Light, along with several
thousand common men-at-arms. Traitors all, their heirs were disinherited, their lands and castles granted
to those who had proved more loyal.


Highgarden reaped the richest harvest. Tyrion eyed Mace Tyrell's broad belly and thought, He has a
prodigious appetite, this one. Tyrell demanded the lands and castles of Lord Alester Florent, his own
bannerman, who'd had the singular ill judgment to back first Renly and then Stannis. Lord Tywin was
pleased to oblige. Brightwater Keep and all its lands and incomes were granted to Lord Tyrell's second
son, Ser Garlan, transforming him into a great lord in the blink of an eye. His elder brother, of course,
stood to inherit Highgarden itself.
Lesser tracts were granted to Lord Rowan, and set aside for Lord Tarly, Lady Oakheart, Lord
Hightower, and other worthies not present. Lord Redwyne asked only for thirty years' remission of the
taxes that Littlefinger and his wine factors had levied on certain of the Arbor's finest vintages. When that
was granted, he pronounced himself well satisfied and suggested that they send for a cask of Arbor gold,
to toast good King Joffrey and his wise and benevolent Hand. At that Cersei lost patience.
"It's swords Joff needs, not toasts," she snapped. "His realm is still plagued with would-be usurpers and
self-styled kings."
"But not for long, I think," said Varys unctuously.
"A few more items remain, my lords." Ser Kevan consulted his papers. "Ser Addam has found some
crystals from the High Septon's crown. It appears certain now that the thieves broke up the crystals and
melted down the gold."
"Our Father Above knows their guilt and will sit in judgment on them all," the High Septon said piously.
"No doubt he will," said Lord Tywin. "All the same, you must be crowned at the king's wedding. Cersei,
summon your goldsmiths, we must see to a replacement." He did not wait for her reply, but turned at
once to Varys. "You have reports?"
The eunuch drew a parchment from his sleeve. "A kraken has been seen off the Fingers." He giggled.
"Not a Greyjoy, mind you, a true kraken. It attacked an Ibbenese whaler and pulled it under. There is
fighting on the Stepstones, and a new war between Tyrosh and Lys seems likely. Both hope to win Myr
as ally. Sailors back from the jade Sea report that a three-headed dragon has hatched in Qarth, and is
the wonder of that city - "
"Dragons and krakens do not interest me, regardless of the number of their heads," said Lord Tywin.
"Have your whisperers perchance found some trace of my brother's son?"
"Alas, our beloved Tyrek has quite vanished, the poor brave lad." Varys sounded close to tears.
"Tywin," Ser Kevan said, before Lord Tywin could vent his obvious displeasure, "some of the gold
cloaks who deserted during the battle have drifted back to barracks, thinking to take up duty once again.
Ser Addam wishes to know what to do with them."
"They might have endangered Joff with their cowardice," Cersei said at once. "I want them put to death."
Varys sighed. "They have surely earned death, Your Grace, none can deny it. And yet, perhaps we
might be wiser to send them to the Night's Watch. We have had disturbing messages from the Wall of
late. Of wildlings astir..."
"Wildlings, krakens, and dragons." Mace Tyrell chuckled. "Why, is there anyone not stirring?"


Lord Tywin ignored that. "The deserters serve us best as a lesson. Break their knees with hammers.
They will not run again. Nor will any man who sees them begging in the streets." He glanced down the
table to see if any of the other lords disagreed.
Tyrion remembered his own visit to the Wall, and the crabs he'd shared with old Lord Mormont and his
officers. He remembered the Old Bear's
fears as well. "Perhaps we might break the knees of a few to make our point. Those who killed Ser
Jacelyn, say. The rest we can send to Marsh. The Watch is grievously under strength. If the Wall should
fail..."
"... the wildlings will flood the north," his father finished, "and the Starks and Greyjoys will have another
enemy to contend with. They no longer wish to be subject to the Iron Throne, it would seem, so by what
right do they look to the Iron Throne for aid? King Robb and King Balon both claim the north. Let them
defend it, if they can. And if not, this Mance Rayder might even prove a useful ally." Lord Tywin looked
to his brother. "Is there more?"
Ser Kevan shook his head. "We are done. My lords, His Grace King Joffrey would no doubt wish to
thank you all for your wisdom and good counsel."
"I should like private words with my children," said Lord Tywin as the others rose to leave. "You as
well, Kevan."
Obediently, the other councillors made their farewells, Varys the first to depart and Tyrell and Redwyne
the last. When the chamber was empty but for the four Lannisters, Ser Kevan closed the door.
"Master of coin~" said Tyrion in a thin strained voice. "Whose notion was that, pray?"
"Lord Petyr's," his father said, "but it serves us well to have the treasury in the hands of a Lannister. You
have asked for important work. Do you fear you might be incapable of the task?"
"No," said Tyrion, "I fear a trap. Littlefinger is subtle and ambitious. I do not trust him. Nor should you."
"He won Highgarden to our side..." Cersei began.
". . . and sold you Ned Stark, I know. He will sell us just as quick. A coin is as dangerous as a sword in
the wrong hands."
His uncle Kevan looked at him oddly. "Not to us, surely. The gold of Casterly Rock..."
". . . is dug from the ground. Littlefinger's gold is made from thin air, with a snap of his fingers."
"A more useful skill than any of yours, sweet brother," purred Cersei, in a voice sweet with malice.
"Littlefinger is a liar - "
" - and black as well, said the raven of the crow."
Lord Tywin slammed his hand down on the table. "Enough! I will have no more of this unseemly
squabbling. You are both Lannisters, and will comport yourselves as such."


Ser Kevan cleared his throat. "I would sooner have Petyr Baelish ruling the Eyrie than any of Lady
Lysa's other suitors. Yohn Royce, Lyn Corbray, Horton Redfort ... these are dangerous men, each in his
own way. And proud. Littlefinger may be clever, but he has neither high birth nor skill
at arms. The lords of the Vale will never accept such as their liege." He looked to his brother. When
Lord Tywin nodded, he continued. "And there is this - Lord Petyr continues to demonstrate his loyalty.
Only yesterday he brought us word of a Tyrell plot to spirit Sansa Stark off to Highgarden for a 'visit/ and
there marry her to Lord Mace's eldest son, Willas."
"Littlefinger brought you word?" Tyrion leaned against the table. "Not our master of whisperers? How
interesting."
Cersei looked at their uncle in disbelief. "Sansa is my hostage. She goes nowhere without my leave."
"Leave you must perforce grant, should Lord Tyrell ask," their father pointed out. "To refuse him would
be tantamount to declaring that we did not trust him. He would take offense."
"Let him. What do we care?"
Bloody fool, thought Tyrion. "Sweet sister," he explained patiently, "offend Tyrell and you offend
Redwyne, Tarly, Rowan, and Hightower as well, and perhaps start them wondering whether Robb Stark
might not be more accommodating of their desires."
"I will not have the rose and the direwolf in bed together," declared Lord Tywin. "We must forestall
him."
"How?" asked Cersei.
"By marriage. Yours, to begin with."
it came so suddenly that Cersei could only stare for a moment. Then her cheeks reddened as if she had
been slapped. "No. Not again. I will not."
"Your Grace," said Ser Kevan, courteously, "you are a young woman, still fair and fertile. Surely you
cannot wish to spend the rest of your days alone? And a new marriage would put to rest this talk of
incest for good and all."
"So long as you remain unwed, you allow Stannis to spread his disgusting slander," Lord Tywin told his
daughter. "You must have a new husband in your bed, to father children on you."
"Three children is quite sufficient. I am Queen of the Seven Kingdoms, not a brood mare! The Queen
Regent!"
"You are my daughter, and will do as I command."
She stood. "I will not sit here and listen to this - "
"You will if you wish to have any voice in the choice of your next husband," Lord Tywin said calmly.
When she hesitated, then sat, Tyrion knew she was lost, despite her loud declaration of, "I will not marry


again!"
"You will marry and you will breed. Every child you birth makes Stannis more a liar." Their father's eyes
seemed to pin her to her chair. "Mace Tyrell, Paxter Redwyne, and Doran Martell are wed to younger
women likely to outlive them. Balon Greyjoy's wife is elderly and failing, but such a match would commit
us to an alliance with the iron Islands, and I am still uncertain whether that would be our wisest course."
"No," Cersei said from between white lips. "No, no, no."
Tyrion could not quite suppress the grin that came to his lips at the thought of packing his sister off to
Pyke. fust when I was about to give up praying, some sweet god gives me this.
Lord Tywin went on. "Oberyn Martell might suit, but the Tyrells would take that very ill. So we must
look to the sons. I assume you do not object to wedding a man younger than yourself?"
"I object to wedding any - "
"I have considered the Redwyne twins, Theon Greyjoy, Quentyn Martell, and a number of others. But
our alliance with Highgarden was the sword that broke Stannis. it should be tempered and made
stronger. Ser Loras has taken the white and Ser Garlan is wed to one of the Fossoways, but there
remains the eldest son, the boy they scheme to wed to Sansa Stark."
Willas Tyrell. Tyrion was taking a wicked pleasure in Cersei's helpless fury. "That would be the cripple,"
he said.
Their father chilled him with a look. "Willas is heir to Highgarden, and by all reports a mild and courtly
young man, fond of reading books and looking at the stars. He has a passion for breeding animals as
well, and owns the finest hounds, hawks, and horses in the Seven Kingdoms."
A perfect match, mused Tyrion. Cersei also has a passion for breeding. He pitied poor Willas Tyrell,
and did not know whether he wanted to laugh at his sister or weep for her.
"The Tyrell heir would be my choice," Lord Tywin concluded, "but if you would prefer another, I will
hear your reasons."
"That is so very kind of you, Father," Cersei said with icy courtesy. "It is such a difficult choice you give
me. Who would I sooner take to bed, the old squid or the crippled dog boy? I shall need a few days to
consider. Do I have your leave to go?"
You are the queen, Tyrion wanted to tell her. He ought to be begging leave of you.
"Go," their father said. "We shall talk again after you have composed yourself. Remember your duty."
Cersei swept stiffly from the room, her rage plain to see. Yet in the end she will do as Father bid. She
had proved that with Robert. Though there is Jaime to consider. Their brother had been much younger
when Cersei wed the first time; he might not acquiesce to a second marriage quite so easily. The
unfortunate Willas Tyrell was like to contract a sudden fatal case of sword-through-bowels, which could
rather sour the alliance between Highgarden and Casterly Rock. I should say something,
but what? Pardon me, Father, but it's our brother she wants to marry?


"Tyrion."
He gave a resigned smile. "Do I hear the herald summoning me to the lists?"
"Your whoring is a weakness in you," Lord Tywin said without preamble, "but perhaps some share of
the blame is mine. Since you stand no taller than a boy, I have found it easy to forget that you are in truth
a man grown, with all of a man's baser needs. It is past time you were wed."
I was wed, or have you forgotten? Tyrion's mouth twisted, and the noise emerged that was half laugh
and half snarl.
"Does the prospect of marriage amuse you?"
"Only imagining what a bugger-all handsome bridegroom I'll make." A wife might be the very thing he
needed. If she brought him lands and a keep, it would give him a place in the world apart from Joffrey's
court ... and away from Cersei and their father.
On the other hand, there was Shae. She will not like this, for all she swears that she is content to be my
whore.
That was scarcely a point to sway his father, however, so Tyrion squirmed higher in his seat and said,
"You mean to wed me to Sansa Stark. But won't the Tyrells take the match as an affront, if they have
designs on the girl?"
"Lord Tyrell will not broach the matter of the Stark girl until after Joffrey's wedding. If Sansa is wed
before that, how can he take offense, when he gave us no hint of his intentions?"
"Quite so," said Ser Kevan, "and any lingering resentments should be soothed by the offer of Cersei for
his Willas."
Tyrion rubbed at the raw stub of his nose. The scar tissue itched abominably sometimes. "His Grace the
royal pustule has made Sansa's life a misery since the day her father died, and now that she is finally rid of
Joffrey you propose to marry her to me. That seems singularly cruel. Even for you, Father."
"Why, do you plan to mistreat her?" His father sounded more curious than concerned. "The girl's
happiness is not my purpose, nor should it be yours. Our alliances in the south may be as solid as
Casterly Rock, but there remains the north to win, and the key to the north is Sansa Stark."
"She is no more than a child."
"Your sister swears she's flowered. If so, she is a woman, fit to be wed. You must needs take her
maidenhead, so no man can say the marriage was not consummated. After that, if you prefer to wait a
year or two before bedding her again, you would be within your rights as her husband."
Shae is all the woman I need just now, he thought, and Sansa's a girl, no matter what you say. "If your
purpose here is to keep her from the
Tyrells, why not return her to her mother? Perhaps that would convince Robb Stark to bend the knee."
Lord Tywin's look was scornful. "Send her to Riverrun and her mother will match her with a Blackwood


or a Mallister to shore up her son's alliances along the Trident. Send her north, and she will be wed to
some Manderly or Umber before the moon turns. Yet she is no less dangerous here at court, as this
business with the Tyrells should prove. She must marry a Lannister, and soon."
"The man who weds Sansa Stark can claim Winterfell in her name," his uncle Kevan put in. "Had that
not occurred to you?"
"If you will not have the girl, we shall give her to one of your cousins," said his father. "Kevan, is Lancel
strong enough to wed, do you think?"
Ser Kevan hesitated. "If we bring the girl to his bedside, he could say the words ... but to consummate,
no ... I would suggest one of the twins, but the Starks hold them both at Riverrun. They have Genna's
boy Tion as well, else he might serve."
Tyrion let them have their byplay; it was all for his benefit, he knew. Sansa Stark, he mused.
Soft-spoken sweet-smelling Sansa, who loved silks, songs, chivalry and tall gallant knights with
handsome faces. He felt as though he was back on the bridge of boats, the deck shifting beneath his feet.
"You asked me to reward you for your efforts in the battle," Lord Tywin reminded him forcefully. "This
is a chance for you, Tyrion, the best you are ever likely to have." He drummed his fingers impatiently on
the table. "I once hoped to marry your brother to Lysa Tully, but Aerys named Jaime to his Kingsguard
before the arrangements were complete. When I suggested to Lord Hoster that Lysa might be wed to
you instead, he replied that he wanted a whole man for his daughter."
So he wed her to [on Arryn, who was old enough to be her grandfather. Tyrion was more inclined to be
thankful than angry, considering what Lysa Arryn had become.
"When I offered you to Dome I was told that the suggestion was an insult," Lord Tywin continued. "In
later years I had similar answers from Yohn Royce and Leyton Hightower. I finally stooped so low as to
suggest you might take the Florent girl Robert deflowered in his brother's wedding bed, but her father
preferred to give her to one of his own household knights.
"if you will not have the Stark girl, I shall find you another wife. Somewhere in the realm there is
doubtless some little lordling who'd gladly part with a daughter to win the friendship of Casterly Rock.
Lady Tanda has offered Lollys . . . "
Tyrion gave a shudder of dismay. "I'd sooner cut it off and feed it to the goats."
"Then open your eyes. The Stark girl is young, nubile, tractable, of the highest birth, and still a maid. She
is not uncomely. Why would you hesitate? "
Why indeed? "A quirk of mine. Strange to say, I would prefer a wife who wants me in her bed."
"If you think your whores want you in their bed, you are an even greater fool than I suspected," said
Lord Tywin. "You disappoint me, Tyrion. I had hoped this match would please you."
"Yes, we all know how important my pleasure is to you, Father. But there's more to this. The key to the
north, you say? The Greyjoys hold the north now, and King Balon has a daughter. Why Sansa Stark,
and not her?" He looked into his father's cool green eyes with their bright flecks of gold.
Lord Tywin steepled his fingers beneath his chin. "Balon Greyjoy thinks in terms of plunder, not rule. Let


him enjoy an autumn crown and suffer a northern winter. He will give his subjects no cause to love him.
Come spring, the northmen will have had a bellyful of krakens. When you bring Eddard Stark's grandson
home to claim his birthright, lords and little folk alike will rise as one to place him on the high seat of his
ancestors. You are capable of getting a woman with child, I hope?"
"I believe I am," he said, bristling. "I confess, I cannot prove it. Though no one can say I have not tried.
Why, I plant my little seeds just as often as I can..."
"In the gutters and the ditches," finished Lord Tywin, "and in common ground where only bastard weeds
take root. It is past time you kept your own garden." He rose to his feet. "You shall never have Casterly
Rock, I promise you. But wed Sansa Stark, and it is just possible that you might win Winterfell."
Tyrion Lannister, Lord Protector of Winterfell. The prospect gave him a queer chill. "Very good,
Father," he said slowly, "but there's a big ugly roach in your rushes. Robb Stark is as capable as I am,
presumably, and sworn to marry one of those fertile Freys. And once the Young Wolf sires a litter, any
pups that Sansa births are heirs to nothing."
Lord Tywin was unconcerned. "Robb Stark will father no children on his fertile Frey, you have my
word. There is a bit of news I have not yet seen fit to share with the council, though no doubt the good
lords will hear it soon enough. The Young Wolf has taken Gawen Westerling's eldest daughter to wife."
For a moment Tyrion could not believe he'd heard his father right. "He broke his sworn word?" he said,
incredulous. "He threw away the Freys for . . . - Words failed him.
"A maid of sixteen years, named Jeyne," said Ser Kevan. "Lord Gawen once suggested her to me for
Willem or Martyn, but I had to refuse him.
Gawen is a good man, but his wife is Sybell Spicer. He should never have wed her. The Westerlings
always did have more honor than sense. Lady Sybell's grandfather was a trader in saffron and pepper,
almost as lowborn as that smuggler Stannis keeps. And the grandmother was some woman he'd brought
back from the east. A frightening old crone, supposed to be a priestess. Maegi, they called her. No one
could pronounce her real name. Half of Lannisport used to go to her for cures and love potions and the
like." He shrugged. "She's long dead, to be sure. And Jeyne seemed a sweet child, I'll grant you, though I
only saw her once. But with such doubtful blood . . . "
Having once married a whore, Tyrion could not entirely share his uncle's horror at the thought of
wedding a girl whose great grandfather sold cloves. Even so ... A sweet child, Ser Kevan had said, but
many a poison was sweet as well. The Westerlings were old blood, but they had more pride than power.
It would not surprise him to learn that Lady Sybell had brought more wealth to the marriage than her
highborn husband. The Westerling mines had failed years ago, their best lands had been sold off or lost,
and the Crag was more ruin than stronghold. A romantic ruin, though, jutting up so brave above the sea.
"I am surprised," Tyrion had to confess. "I thought Robb Stark had better sense."
"He is a boy of sixteen," said Lord Tywin. "At that age, sense weighs for little, against lust and love and
honor."
"He forswore himself, shamed an ally, betrayed a solemn promise. Where is the honor in that?"
Ser Kevan answered. "He chose the girl's honor over his own. Once he had deflowered her, he had no
other course."


"it would have been kinder to leave her with a bastard in her belly," said Tyrion bluntly. The Westerlings
stood to lose everything here; their lands, their castle, their very lives. A Lannister always pays his debts.
"Jeyne Westerling is her mother's daughter," said Lord Tywin, "and Robb Stark is his father's son."
This Westerling betrayal did not seem to have enraged his father as much as Tyrion would have
expected. Lord Tywin did not suffer disloyalty in his vassals. He had extinguished the proud Reynes of
Castamere and the ancient Tarbecks of Tarbeck Hall root and branch when he was still half a boy. The
singers had even made a rather gloomy song of it. Some years later, when Lord Farman of Faircastle
grew truculent, Lord Tywin sent an envoy bearing a lute instead of a letter. But once he'd heard "The
Rains of Castamere" echoing through his hall, Lord Farman gave no further trouble. And if the song were
not enough, the shattered castles of the Reynes and Tarbecks still stood as mute testimony to the fate that
awaited those who chose to scorn the power of Casterly Rock. "The Crag is not so far from Tarbeck
Hall and Castamere," Tyrion
pointed out. "You'd think the Westerlings might have ridden past and seen the lesson there."
"Mayhaps they have," Lord Tywin said. "They are well aware of Castamere, I promise you."
"Could the Westerlings and Spicers be such great fools as to believe the wolf can defeat the lion?"
Every once in a very long while, Lord Tywin Lannister would actually threaten to smile; he never did, but
the threat alone was terrible to behold. "The greatest fools are ofttimes more clever than the men who
laugh at them," he said, and then, "You will marry Sansa Stark, Tyrion. And soon."
Chapter 20
CATELYN
They carried the corpses in upon their shoulders and laid them beneath the dais. A silence fell across the
torchlit hall, and in the quiet Catelyn could hear Grey Wind howling half a castle away. He smells the
blood, she thought, through stone walls and wooden doors, through night and rain, he still knows the
scent of death and ruin.
She stood at Robb's left hand beside the high seat, and for a moment felt almost as if she were looking
down at her own dead, at Bran and Rickon. These boys had been much older, but death had shrunken
them. Naked and wet, they seemed such little things, so still it was hard to remember them living.
The blond boy had been trying to grow a beard. Pale yellow peach fuzz covered his cheeks and jaw
above the red ruin the knife had made of his throat. His long golden hair was still wet, as if he had been
pulled from a bath. By the look of him, he had died peacefully, perhaps in sleep, but his brown-haired
cousin had fought for life. His arms bore slashes where he'd tried to block the blades, and red still
trickled slowly from the stab wounds that covered his chest and belly and back like so many tongueless
mouths, though the rain had washed him almost clean.
Robb had donned his crown before coming to the hall, and the bronze shone darkly in the torchlight.
Shadows hid his eyes as he looked upon the dead. Does he see Bran and Rickon as well? She might


have wept, but there were no tears left in her. The dead boys were pale from long imprisonment, and
both had been fair; against their smooth white skin, the blood was shockingly red, unbearable to look
upon. Will they lay Sansa down naked beneath the Iron Throne after they have killed her?
Will her skin seem as white, her blood as red~ From outside came the steady wash of rain and the
restless howling of a wolf.
Her brother Edmure stood to Robb's right, one hand upon the back of his father's seat, his face still puffy
from sleep. They had woken him as they had her, pounding on his door in the black of night to yank him
rudely from his dreams. Were they good dreams, brother? Do you dream of sunlight and laughter and a
maiden's kisses? I pray you do. Her own dreams were dark and laced with terrors.
Robb's captains and lords bannermen stood about the hall, some mailed and armed, others in various
states of dishevelment and undress. Ser Raynald and his uncle Ser Rolph were among them, but Robb
had seen fit to spare his queen this ugliness. The Crag is not far from Casterly Rock, Catelyn recalled.
leyne may well have played with these boys when all of them were children.
She looked down again upon the corpses of the squires Tion Frey and Willem Lannister, and waited for
her son to speak.
It seemed a very long time before Robb lifted his eyes from the bloody dead. "Smalljon," he said, "tell
your father to bring them in." Wordless, Smalljon Umber turned to obey, his steps echoing in the great
stone hall.
As the Greatjon marched his prisoners through the doors, Catelyn made note of how some other men
stepped back to give them room, as if treason could somehow be passed by a touch, a glance, a cough.
The captors and the captives looked much alike; big men, every one, with thick beards and long hair.
Two of the Greatjon's men were wounded, and three of their prisoners. only the fact that some had
spears and others empty scabbards served to set them apart. All were clad in mail hauberks or shirts of
sewn rings, with heavy boots and thick cloaks, some of wool and some of fur. The north is hard and
cold, and has no mercy, Ned had told her when she first came to Winterfell a thousand years ago.
"Five," said Robb when the prisoners stood before him, wet and silent. "Is that all of them?"
"There were eight," rumbled the Greatjon. "We killed two taking them, and a third is dying now."
Robb studied the faces of the captives. "It required eight of you to kill two unarmed squires."
Edmure Tully spoke up. "They murdered two of my men as well, to get into the tower. Delp and
Elwood."
"It was no murder, ser," said Lord Rickard Karstark, no more discomfited by the ropes about his wrists
than by the blood that trickled down his face. "Any man who steps between a father and his vengeance
asks for death."
His words rang against Catelyn's ears, harsh and cruel as the pounding
of a war drum. Her throat was dry as bone. I did this. These two boys died so my daughters might live.
"I saw your sons die, that night in the Whispering Wood," Robb told Lord Karstark. "Tion Frey did not
kill Torrhen. Willem Lannister did not slay Eddard. How then can you call this vengeance? This was folly,


and bloody murder. Your sons died honorably on a battlefield, with swords in their hands."
"They died," said Rickard Karstark, yielding no inch of ground. "The Kingslayer cut them down. These
two were of his ilk. Only blood can pay for blood."
"The blood of children?" Robb pointed at the corpses. "How old were they? Twelve, thirteen? Squires."
"Squires die in every battle."
"Die fighting, yes. Tion Frey and Willem Lannister gave up their swords in the Whispering Wood. They
were captives, locked in a cell, asleep, unarmed ... boys. Look at them!"
Lord Karstark looked instead at Catelyn. "Tell your mother to look at them," he said. "She slew them,
as much as L"
Catelyn put a hand on the back of Robb's seat. The hall seemed to spin about her. She felt as though she
might retch.
"My mother had naught to do with this," Robb said angrily. "This was your work. Your murder. Your
treason."
"How can it be treason to kill Lannisters, when it is not treason to free them?" asked Karstark harshly.
"Has Your Grace forgotten that we are at war with Casterly Rock? In war you kill your enemies. Didn't
your father teach you that, boy?"
"Boy?" The Greatjon dealt Rickard Karstark a buffet with a mailed fist that sent the other lord to his
knees.
"Leave him!" Robb's voice rang with command. Umber stepped back away from the captive.
Lord Karstark spit out a broken tooth. "Yes, Lord Umber, leave me to the king. He means to give me a
scolding before he forgives me. That's how he deals with treason, our King in the North." He smiled a
wet red smile. "or should I call you the King Who Lost the North, Your Grace?"
The Greatjon snatched a spear from the man beside him and jerked it to his shoulder. "Let me spit him,
sire. Let me open his belly so we can see the color of his guts."
The doors of the hall crashed open, and the Blackfish entered with water running from his cloak and
helm. Tully men-at-arms followed him in, while outside lightning cracked across the sky and a hard black
rain pounded against the stones of Riverrun. Ser Brynden removed his helm and went to one knee. "Your
Grace," was all he said, but the grimness of his tone spoke volumes.
"I will hear Ser Brynden privily, in the audience chamber." Robb rose to his feet. "Greatjon, keep Lord
Karstark here till I return, and hang the other seven."
The Greatjon lowered the spear. "Even the dead ones?"
"Yes. I will not have such fouling my lord uncle's rivers. Let them feed the crows."
One of the captives dropped to his knees. "Mercy, sire. I killed no one, I only stood at the door to
watch for guards."


Robb considered that a moment. "Did you know what Lord Rickard intended? Did you see the knives
drawn? Did you hear the shouts, the screams, the cries for mercy?"
"Aye, I did, but I took no part. I was only the watcher, I swear it..."
"Lord Umber," said Robb, "this one was only the watcher. Hang him last, so he may watch the others
die. Mother, Uncle, with me, if you please." He turned away as the Greatjon's men closed upon the
prisoners and drove them from the hall at spearpoint. Outside the thunder crashed and boomed, so loud
it sounded as if the castle were coming down about their ears. Is this the sound of a kingdom falling?
Catelyn wondered.
It was dark within the audience chamber, but at least the sound of the thunder was muffled by another
thickness of wall. A servant entered with an oil lamp to light the fire, but Robb sent him away and kept
the lamp. There were tables and chairs, but only Edmure sat, and he rose again when he realized that the
others had remainded standing. Robb took off his crown and placed it on the table before him.
The Blackfish shut the door. "The Karstarks are gone."
"All?" Was it anger or despair that thickened Robb's voice like that? Even Catelyn was not certain.
"All the fighting men," Ser Brynden replied. "A few camp followers and serving men were left with their
wounded. We questioned as many as we needed, to be certain of the truth. They started leaving at
nightfall, stealing off in ones and twos at first, and then in larger groups. The wounded men and servants
were told to keep the campfires lit so no one would know they'd gone, but once the rains began it didn't
matter."
"Will they re-form, away from Riverrun?" asked Robb.
"No. They've scattered, hunting. Lord Karstark has sworn to give the hand of his maiden daughter to
any man highbom or low who brings him the head of the Kingslayer."
Gods be good. Catelyn felt ill again.
"Near three hundred riders and twice as many mounts, melted away in the night." Robb rubbed his
temples, where the crown had left its mark in the soft skin above his ears. "All the mounted strength of
Karhold, lost."
Lost by me. By me, may the gods forgive me. Catelyn did not need to
be a soldier to grasp the trap Robb was in. For the moment he held the riverlands, but his kingdom was
surrounded by enemies to every side but east, where Lysa sat aloof on her mountaintop. Even the Trident
was scarce secure so long as the Lord of the Crossing withheld his allegiance. And now to lose the
Karstarks as well ...
"No word of this must leave Riverrun," her brother Edmure said. "Lord Tywin would ... the Lannisters
pay their debts, they are always saying that. Mother have mercy, when he hears."
Sansa. Catelyn's nails dug into the soft flesh of her palms, so hard did she close her hand.
Robb gave Edmure a look that chilled. "Would you make me a liar as well as a murderer, Uncle?"


"We need speak no falsehood. Only say nothing. Bury the boys and hold our tongues till the war's done.
Willem was son to Ser Kevan Lannister, and Lord Tywin's nephew. Tion was Lady Genna's, and a Frey.
We must keep the news from the Twins as well, until . . . "
"Until we can bring the murdered dead back to life?" said Brynden Blackfish sharply. "The truth escaped
with the Karstarks, Edmure. It is too late for such games."
"I owe their fathers truth," said Robb. "And justice. I owe them that as well." He gazed at his crown, the
dark gleam of bronze, the circle of iron swords. "Lord Rickard defied me. Betrayed me. I have no choice
but to condemn him. Gods know what the Karstark foot with Roose Bolton will do when they hear I've
executed their liege for a traitor. Bolton must be warned."
"Lord Karstark's heir was at Harrenhal as well," Ser Brynden reminded him. "The eldest son, the one the
Lannisters took captive on the Green Fork."
"Harrion. His name is Harrion." Robb laughed bitterly. "A king had best know the names of his enemies,
don't you think?"
The Blackfish looked at him shrewdly. "You know that for a certainty? That this will make young
Karstark your enemy?"
"What else would he be? I am about to kill his father, he's not like to thank me."
"He might. There are sons who hate their fathers, and in a stroke you will make him Lord of Karhold."
Robb shook his head. "Even if Harrion were that sort, he could never openly forgive his father's killer.
His own men would turn on him. These are northmen, Uncle. The north remembers."
"Pardon him, then," urged Edmure Tully.
Robb stared at him in frank disbelief.
Under that gaze, Edmure's face reddened. "Spare his life, I mean. I don't like the taste of it any more
than you, sire. He slew my men
as well. Poor Delp had only just recovered from the wound Ser Jaime gave him. Karstark must be
punished, certainly. Keep him in chains, say."
"A hostage?" said Catelyn. It might be best ...
"Yes, a hostage!" Her brother seized on her musing as agreement. "Tell the son that so long as he
remains loyal, his father will not be harmed. Otherwise ... we have no hope of the Freys now, not if I
offered to marry all Lord Walder's daughters and carry his litter besides. If we should lose the Karstarks
as well, what hope is there?"
"What hope..." Robb let out a breath, pushed his hair back from his eyes, and said, "We've had naught
from Ser Rodrik in the north, no response from Walder Frey to our new offer, only silence from the
Eyrie." He appealed to his mother. "Will your sister never answer us? How many times must I write her?
I will not believe that none of the birds have reached her."


Her son wanted comfort, Catelyn realized; he wanted to hear that it would be all right. But her king
needed truth. "The birds have reached her. Though she may tell you they did not, if it ever comes to that.
Expect no help from that quarter, Robb.
"Lysa was never brave. When we were girls together, she would run and hide whenever she'd done
something wrong. Perhaps she thought our lord father would forget to be wroth with her if he could not
find her. It is no different now. She ran from King's Landing for fear, to the safest place she knows, and
she sits on her mountain hoping everyone will forget her."
"The knights of the Vale could make all the difference in this war," said Robb, "but if she will not fight, so
be it. I've asked only that she open the Bloody Gate for us, and provide ships at Gulltown to take us
north. The high road would be hard, but not so hard as fighting our way up the Neck. If I could land at
White Harbor I could flank Moat Cailin and drive the ironmen from the north in half a year."
"It will not happen, sire," said the Blackfish. "Cat is right. Lady Lysa is too fearful to admit an army to the
Vale. Any army. The Bloody Gate will remain closed."
"The Others can take her, then," Robb cursed, in a fury of despair. "Bloody Rickard Karstark as well.
And Theon Greyjoy, Walder Frey, Tywin Lannister, and all the rest of them. Gods be good, why would
any man ever want to be king? When everyone was shouting King in the North, King in the North, I told
myself ... swore to myself ... that I would be a good king, as honorable as Father, strong, just, loyal to
my friends and brave when I faced my enemies ... now I can't even tell one from the other. How did it all
get so confused? Lord Rickard's fought at my side in half a dozen battles. His sons died for me in the
Whispering
Wood. Tion Frey and Willem Lannister were my enemies. Yet now I have to kill my dead friends' father
for their sakes." He looked at them all. "Will the Lannisters thank me for Lord Rickard's head? Will the
Freys?"
"No," said Brynden Blackfish, blunt as ever.
"All the more reason to spare Lord Rickard's life and keep him hostage," Edmure urged.
Robb reached down with both hands, lifted the heavy bronze-and-iron crown, and set it back atop his
head, and suddenly he was a king again. "Lord Rickard dies."
"But why~ " said Edmure. "You said yourself -
"I know what I said, Uncle. It does not change what I must do." The swords in his crown stood stark
and black against his brow. "In battle I might have slain Tion and Willem myself, but this was no battle.
They were asleep in their beds, naked and unarmed, in a cell where I put them. Rickard Karstark killed
more than a Frey and a Lannister. He killed my honor. I shall deal with him at dawn."
When day broke, grey and chilly, the storm had diminished to a steady, soaking rain, yet even so the
godswood was crowded. River lords and northmen, highborn and low, knights and sellswords and
stableboys, they stood amongst the trees to see the end of the night's dark dance. Edmure had given
commands, and a headsman's block had been set up before the heart tree. Rain and leaves fell all around
them as the Greatjon's men led Lord Rickard Karstark through the press, hands still bound. His men
already hung from Riverrun's high walls, slumping at the end of long ropes as the rain washed down their
darkening faces.


Long Lew waited beside the block, but Robb took the poleaxe from his hand and ordered him to step
aside. "This is my work," he said. "He dies at my word. He must die by my hand."
Lord Rickard Karstark dipped his head stiffly. "For that much, I thank you. But for naught else." He had
dressed for death in a long black wool surcoat emblazoned with the white sunburst of his House. "The
blood of the First Men flows in my veins as much as yours, boy. You would do well to remember that. I
was named for your grandfather. I raised my banners against King Aerys for your father, and against
King Joffrey for you. At Oxcross and the Whispering Wood and in the Battle of the Camps, I rode
beside you, and I stood with Lord Eddard on the Trident. We are kin, Stark and Karstark."
"This kinship did not stop you from betraying me," Robb said. "And it will not save you now. Kneel, my
lord."
Lord Rickard had spoken truly, Catelyn knew. The Karstarks traced their descent to Karlon Stark, a
younger son of Winterfell who had put down a rebel lord a thousand years ago, and been granted lands
for his valor. The castle he built had been named Karl's Hold, but that soon
became Karhold, and over the centuries the Karhold Starks had become Karstarks.
"Old gods or new, it makes no matter," Lord Rickard told her son, "no man is so accursed as the
kinslayer."
"Kneel, traitor," Robb said again. "Or must I have them force your head onto the block?"
Lord Karstark knelt. "The gods shall judge you, as you have judged me." He laid his head upon the
block.
"Rickard Karstark, Lord of Karhold." Robb lifted the heavy axe with both hands. "Here in sight of gods
and men, I judge you guilty of murder and high treason. In mine own name I condemn you. With mine
own hand I take your life. Would you speak a final word?"
"Kill me, and be cursed. You are no king of mine."
The axe crashed down. Heavy and well-honed, it killed at a single blow, but it took three to sever the
man's head from his body, and by the time it was done both living and dead were drenched in blood.
Robb flung the poleaxe down in disgust, and turned wordless to the heart tree. He stood shaking with his
hands half-clenched and the rain running down his cheeks. Gods forgive him, Catelyn prayed in silence.
He is only a boy, and he had no other choice.
That was the last she saw of her son that day. The rain continued all through the morning, lashing the
surface of the rivers and turning the godswood grass into mud and puddles. The Blackfish assembled a
hundred men and rode out after Karstarks, but no one expected he would bring back many. "I only pray
I do not need to hang them," he said as he departed. When he was gone, Catelyn retreated to her father's
solar, to sit once more beside Lord Hoster's bed.
"It will not be much longer," Maester Vyman warned her, when he came that afternoon. "His last
strength is going, though still he tries to fight.11
"He was ever a fighter," she said. "A sweet stubborn man."
"Yes," the maester said, "but this battle he cannot win. It is time he lay down his sword and shield. Time


to yield."
To yield, she thought, to make a peace. Was it her father the maester was speaking of, or her son?
At evenfall, Jeyne Westerling came to see her. The young queen entered the solar timidly. "Lady
Catelyn, I do not mean to disturb you..."
"You are most welcome here, Your Grace." Catelyn had been sewing, but she put the needle aside now.
"Please. Call me Jeyne. I don't feel like a Grace."
"You are one, nonetheless. Please, come sit, Your Grace."
"Jeyne." She sat by the hearth and smoothed her skirt out anxiously.
"As you wish. How might I serve you, Jeyne?"
"It's Robb," the girl said. "He's so miserable, so ... so angry and disconsolate. I don't know what to do."
"It is a hard thing to take a man's life."
"I know. I told him, he should use a headsman. When Lord Tywin sends a man to die, all he does is give
the command. it's easier that way, don't you think?"
"Yes," said Catelyn, "but my lord husband taught his sons that killing should never be easy."
"Oh." Queen Jeyne wet her lips. "Robb has not eaten all day. I had Rollam bring him a nice supper,
boar's ribs and stewed onions and ale, but he never touched a bite of it. He spent all morning writing a
letter and told me not to disturb him, but when the letter was done he burned it. Now he is sitting and
looking at maps. I asked him what he was looking for, but he never answered. I don't think he ever heard
me. He wouldn't even change out of his clothes. They were damp all day, and bloody. I want to be a
good wife to him, I do, but I don't know how to help. To cheer him, or comfort him. I don't know what
he needs. Please, my lady, you're his mother, tell me what I should do."
Tell me what I should do. Catelyn might have asked the same, if her father had been well enough to ask.
But Lord Hoster was gone, or near enough. Her Ned as well. Bran and Rickon too, and Mother, and
Brandon so long ago. Only Robb remained to her, Robb and the fading hope of her daughters.
"Sometimes," Catelyn said slowly, "the best thing you can do is nothing. When I first came to Winterfell,
I was hurt whenever Ned went to the godswood to sit beneath his heart tree. Part of his soul was in that
tree, I knew, a part I would never share. Yet without that part, I soon realized, he would not have been
Ned. Jeyne, child, you have wed the north, as I did ... and in the north, the winters will come." She tried
to smile. "Be patient. Be understanding. He loves you and he needs you, and he will come back to you
soon enough. This very night, perhaps. Be there when he does. That is all I can tell you."
The young queen listened raptly. "I will," she said when Catelyn was done. "I'll be there." She got to her
feet. "I should go back. He might have missed me. I'll see. But if he's still at his maps, I'll be patient."
"Do," said Catelyn, but when the girl was at the door, she thought of something else. "Jeyne," she called
after, "there's one more thing Robb needs from you, though he may not know it yet himself. A king must
have an heir."


The girl smiled at that. "My mother says the same. She makes a posset for me, herbs and milk and ale,
to help make me fertile. I drink it every morning. I told Robb I'm sure to give him twins. An Eddard and a
Brandon. He liked that, I think. We ... we try most every day, my lady. Sometimes
twice or more." The girl blushed very prettily. "I'll be with child soon, I promise. I pray to our Mother
Above, every night."
"Very good. I will add my prayers as well. To the old gods and the new."
When the girl had gone, Catelyn turned back to her father and smoothed the thin white hair across his
brow. "An Eddard and a Brandon," she sighed softly. "And perhaps in time a Hoster. Would you like
that?" He did not answer, but she had never expected that he would. As the sound of the rain on the roof
mingled with her father's breathing, she thought about Jeyne. The girl did seem to have a good heart, just
as Robb had said. And good hips, which might be more important.
Chapter 21
JAIME
Two days' ride to either side of the kingsroad, they passed through a wide swath of destruction, miles of
blackened fields and orchards where the trunks of dead trees jutted into the air like archers' stakes. The
bridges were burnt as well, and the streams swollen by autumn rains, so they had to range along the
banks in search of fords. The nights were alive with howling of wolves, but they saw no people.
At Maidenpool, Lord Mooton's red salmon still flew above the castle on its hill, but the town walls were
deserted, the gates smashed, half the homes and shops burned or plundered. They saw nothing living but
a few feral dogs that went slinking away at the sound of their approach. The pool from which the town
took its name, where legend said that Florian the Fool had first glimpsed jonquil bathing with her sisters,
was so choked with rotting corpses that the water had turned into a murky grey-green soup.
Jaime took one look and burst into song. "Six maids there were in a spring-fed pool. . . "
"What are you doing?" Brienne demanded.
"Singing. 'Six Maids in a Pool/ I'm sure you've heard it. And shy little maids they were, too. Rather like
you. Though somewhat prettier, I'll warrant."
"Be quiet," the wench said, with a look that suggested she would love to leave him floating in the pool
among the corpses.
"Please, Jaime," pleaded cousin Cleos. "Lord Mooton is sworn to Riverrun, we don't want to draw him
out of his castle. And there may be other enemies hiding in the rubble..."
"Hers or ours? They are not the same, coz. I have a yen to see if the wench can use that sword she
wears."


"If you won't be quiet, you leave me no choice but to gag you, Kingslayer."
"Unchain my hands and I'll play mute all the way to King's Landing. What could be fairer than that,
wench?"
"Brienne! My name is Brienne!" Three crows went flapping into the air startled at the sound.
"Care for a bath, Brienne?" He laughed. "You're a maiden and there's the pool. I'll wash your back." He
used to scrub Cersei's back, when they were children together at Casterly Rock.
The wench turned her horse's head and trotted away. Jaime and Ser Cleos followed her out of the ashes
of Maidenpool. A half mile on, green began to creep back into the world once more. Jaime was glad.
The burned lands reminded him too much of Aerys.
"She's taking the Duskendale road," Ser Cleos muttered. "it would be safer to follow the coast."
"Safer but slower. I'm for Duskendale, coz. If truth be told, I'm bored with your company." You may be
half Lannistei, but you're a far cry from my sister.
He could never bear to be long apart from his twin. Even as children, they would creep into each other's
beds and sleep with their arms entwined. Even in the womb. Long before his sister's flowering or the
advent of his own manhood, they had seen mares and stallions in the fields and dogs and bitches in the
kennels and played at doing the same. Once their mother's maid had caught them at it ... he did not recall
just what they had been doing, but whatever it was had horrified Lady Joanna. She'd sent the maid away,
moved Jaime's bedchamber to the other side of Casterly Rock, set a guard outside Cersei's, and told
them that they must never do that again or she would have no choice but to tell their lord father. They
need not have feared, though. It was not long after that she died birthing Tyrion. Jaime barely
remembered what his mother had looked like.
Perhaps Stannis Baratheon and the Starks had done him a kindness. They had spread their tale of incest
all over the Seven Kingdoms, so there was nothing left to hide. Why shouldn't I marry Cersei openly and
share her bed every night? The dragons always married their sisters. Septons, lords, and smallfolk had
turned a blind eye to the Targaryens for hundreds of years, let them do the same for House Lannister. It
would play havoc with Joffrey's claim to the crown, to be sure, but in the end it had been swords that had
won the iron Throne for Robert, and swords could keep Joffrey there as well, regardless of whose seed
he was. We could marry him to Myrcella, once we've sent Sansa Stark back to her mother. That
would show the realm that the Lannisters are above their laws, like gods and Targaryens.
Jaime had decided that he would return Sansa, and the younger girl as well if she could be found. It was
not like to win him back his lost honor, but the notion of keeping faith when they all expected betrayal
amused him more than he could say.
They were riding past a trampled wheatfield and a low stone wall when Jaime heard a soft thrum from
behind, as if a dozen birds had taken flight at once. "Down!" he shouted, throwing himself against the
neck of his horse. The gelding screamed and reared as an arrow took him in the rump. other shafts went
hissing past. Jaime saw Ser Cleos lurch from the saddle, twisting as his foot caught in the stirrup. His
palfrey bolted, and Frey was dragged past shouting, head bouncing against the ground.
Jaime's gelding lumbered off ponderously, blowing and snorting in pain. He craned around to look for
Brienne. She was still ahorse, an arrow lodged in her back and another in her leg, but she seemed not to


feel them. He saw her pull her sword and wheel in a circle, searching for the bowmen. "Behind the wall,"
Jaime called, fighting to turn his halfblind mount back toward the fight. The reins were tangled in his
damned chains, and the air was full of arrows again. "At them!" he shouted, kicking to show her how it
was done. The old sorry horse found a burst of speed from somewhere. Suddenly they were racing
across the wheatfield, throwing up clouds of chaff. Jaime had just enough time to think, The wench had
better follow before they realize they're being charged by an unarmed man in chains. Then he heard her
coming hard behind. "Evenfall!" she shouted as her plow horse thundered by. She brandished her
longsword. "Tarth! Tarth!"
A few last arrows sped harmlessly past; then the bowmen broke and ran, the way unsupported bowmen
always broke and ran before the charge of knights. Brienne reined up at the wall. By the time Jaime
reached her, they had all melted into the wood twenty yards away. "Lost your taste for battle?"
"They were running."
"That's the best time to kill them."
She sheathed her sword. "Why did you charge?"
"Bowmen are fearless so long as they can hide behind walls and shoot at you from afar, but if you come
at them, they run. They know what will happen when you reach them. You have an arrow in your back,
you know. And another in your leg. You ought to let me tend them."
"YOU?"
"Who else? The last I saw of cousin Cleos, his palfrey was using his head to plow a furrow. Though I
suppose we ought to find him. He is a Lannister of sorts."
They found Cleos still tangled in his stirrup. He had an arrow through his right arm and a second in his
chest, but it was the ground that had done for him. The top of his head was matted with blood and mushy
to the touch, pieces of broken bone moving under the skin beneath the pressure of Jaime's hand.
Brienne knelt and held his hand. "He's still warm."
"He'll cool soon enough. I want his horse and his clothes. I'm weary of rags and fleas."
"He was your cousin." The wench was shocked.
"Was," Jaime agreed. "Have no fear, I am amply provisioned in cousins. I'll have his sword as well. You
need someone to share the watches."
"You can stand a watch without weapons." She rose.
"Chained to a tree? Perhaps I could. Or perhaps I could make my own bargain with the next lot of
outlaws and let them slit that thick neck of yours, wench."
"I will not arm you. And my name is -
" - Brienne, I know. I'll swear an oath not to harm you, if that will ease your girlish fears."
"Your oaths are worthless. You swore an oath to Aerys."


"You haven't cooked anyone in their armor so far as I know. And we both want me safe and whole in
King's Landing, don't we?" He squatted beside Cleos and began to undo his swordbelt.
"Step away from him. Now. Stop that."
Jaime was tired. Tired of her suspicions, tired of her insults, tired of her crooked teeth and her broad
spotty face and that limp thin hair of hers. Ignoring her protests, he grasped the hilt of his cousin's
longsword with both hands, held the corpse down with his foot, and pulled. As the blade slid from the
scabbard, he was already pivoting, bringing the sword around and up in a swift deadly arc. Steel met
steel with a ringing, bone-jarring clang. Somehow Brienne had gotten her own blade out in time. Jaime
laughed. "Very good, wench."
"Give me the sword, Kingslayer."
"Oh, I will." He sprang to his feet and drove at her, the longsword alive in his hands. Brienne jumped
back, parrying, but he followed, pressing the attack. No sooner did she turn one cut than the next was
upon her. The swords kissed and sprang apart and kissed again. Jaime's blood was singing. This was
what he was meant for; he never felt so alive as when he was fighting, with death balanced on every
stroke. And with my wrists chained together, the wench may even give me a contest for a time. His
chains forced him to use a two-handed grip, though of course the weight and reach were less than if the
blade had been a true two-handed greatsword, but what did it matter? His cousin's sword was long
enough to write an end to this Brienne of Tarth.
High, low, overhand, he rained down steel upon her. Left, right, backslash, swinging so hard that sparks
flew when the swords came together, upswing, sideslash, overhand, always attacking, moving into her,
step and slide, strike and step, step and strike, hacking, slashing, faster,faster,faster ...
... until, breathless, he stepped back and let the point of the sword fall to the ground, giving her a
moment of respite. "Not half bad," he acknowledged. "For a wench."
She took a slow deep breath, her eyes watching him warily. "I would not hurt you, Kingslayer."
"As if you could." He whirled the blade back up above his head and flew at her again, chains rattling.
Jaime could not have said how long he pressed the attack. it might have been minutes or it might have
been hours; time slept when swords woke. He drove her away from his cousin's corpse, drove her
across the road, drove her into the trees. She stumbled once on a root she never saw, and for a moment
he thought she was done, but she went to one knee instead of falling, and never lost a beat. Her sword
leapt up to block a downcut that would have opened her from shoulder to groin, and then she cut at him,
again and again, fighting her way back to her feet stroke by stroke.
The dance went on. He pinned her against an oak, cursed as she slipped away, followed her through a
shallow brook half-choked with fallen leaves. Steel rang, steel sang, steel screamed and sparked and
scraped, and the woman started grunting like a sow at every crash, yet somehow he could not reach her.
It was as if she had an iron cage around her that stopped every blow.
"Not bad at all," he said when he paused for a second to catch his breath, circling to her right.
"For a wench?"


"For a squire, say. A green one." He laughed a ragged, breathless laugh. "Come on, come on, my
sweetling, the music's still playing. Might I have this dance, my lady?"
Grunting, she came at him, blade whirling, and suddenly it was Jaime struggling to keep steel from skin.
One of her slashes raked across his brow, and blood ran down into his right eye. The Others take her,
and Riverrun as well! His skills had gone to rust and rot in that bloody dungeon, and the chains were no
great help either. His eye closed, his shoulders were going numb from the jarring they'd taken, and his
wrists ached from the weight of chains, manacles, and sword. His longsword grew heavier with every
blow, and Jaime knew he was not swinging it as quickly as he'd done earlier, nor raising it as high.
She is stronger than I am.
The realization chilled him. Robert had been stronger than him, to be sure. The White Bull Gerold
Hightower as well, in his heyday, and Ser Arthur Dayne. Amongst the living, Greatjon Umber was
stronger, Strongboar of Crakehall most likely, both Cleganes for a certainty. The Mountain's strength
was like nothing human. It did not matter. With speed and skill, Jaime could beat them all. But this was a
woman. A huge cow of a woman, to be sure, but even so ... by rights, she should be the one wearing
down.
Instead she forced him back into the brook again, shouting, "Yield! Throw down the sword!"
A slick stone turned under Jaime's foot. As he felt himself falling, he twisted the mischance into a diving
lunge. His point scraped past her parry and bit into her upper thigh. A red flower blossomed, and Jaime
had an instant to savor the sight of her blood before his knee slammed into a rock. The pain was blinding.
Brienne splashed into him and kicked away his sword. "YIELD!"
Jaime drove his shoulder into her legs, bringing her down on top of him. They rolled, kicking and
punching until finally she was sitting astride him. He managed to jerk her dagger from its sheath, but
before he could plunge it into her belly she caught his wrist and slammed his hands back on a rock so
hard he thought she'd wrenched an arm from its socket. Her other hand spread across his face. "Yield!"
She shoved his head down, held it under, pulled it up. "Yield!" Jaime spit water into her face. A shove, a
splash, and he was under again, kicking uselessly, fighting to breathe. Up again. "Yield, or I'll drown
you!"
"And break your oath?" he snarled. "Like me?"
She let him go, and he went down with a splash.
And the woods rang with coarse laughter.
Brienne lurched to her feet. She was all mud and blood below the waist, her clothing askew, her face
red. She looks as if they caught us fucking instead of fighting. Jaime crawled over the rocks to shallow
water, wiping the blood from his eye with his chained hands. Armed men lined both sides of the brook.
Small wonder, we were making enough noise to wake a dragon. "Well met, friends," he called to them
amiably. "My pardons if I disturbed you. You caught me chastising my wife."
"Seemed to me she was doing the chastising." The man who spoke was thick and powerful, and the
nasal bar of his iron halfhelm did not wholly conceal his lack of a nose.
These were not the outlaws who had killed Ser Cleos, Jaime realized suddenly. The scum of the earth
surrounded them: swarthy Dornishmen and blond Lyseni, Dothraki with bells in their braids, hairy


Ibbenese, coal-black Summer Islanders in feathered cloaks. He knew them. The Brave Companions.
Brienne found her voice. "I have a hundred stags - "
A cadaverous man in a tattered leather cloak said, "We'll take that for a start, m'lady."
"Then we'll have your cunt," said the noseless man. "It can't be as ugly as the rest of you."
"Turn her over and rape her arse, Rorge," urged a Dornish spearman with a red silk scarf wound about
his helm. "That way you won't need to look at her."
"And rob her o' the pleasure o' looking at me?" noseless said, and the others laughed.
Ugly and stubborn though she might be, the wench deserved better than to be gang raped by such refuse
as these. "Who commands here?" Jaime demanded loudly.
"I have that honor, Ser Jaime." The cadaver's eyes were rimmed in red, his hair thin and dry. Dark blue
veins could be seen through the pallid skin of his hands and face. "Urswyck I am. Called Urswyck the
Faithful."
"You know who I am?"
The sellsword inclined his head. "it takes more than a beard and a shaved head to deceive the Brave
Companions."
The Bloody Mummers, you mean. Jaime had no more use for these than he did for Gregor Clegane or
Amory Lorch. Dogs, his father called them all, and he used them like dogs, to hound his prey and put
fear in their hearts. "If you know me, Urswyck, you know you'll have your reward. A Lannister always
pays his debts. As for the wench, she's highborn, and worth a good ransom."
The other cocked his head. "Is it so? How fortunate."
There was something sly about the way Urswyck was smiling that Jaime did not like. "You heard me.
Where's the goat?"
"A few hours distant. He will be pleased to see you, I have no doubt, but I would not call him a goat to
his face. Lord Vargo grows prickly about his dignity."
Since when has that slobbering savage had dignity? "I'll be sure and remember that, when I see him.
Lord of what, pray?"
"Harrenhal. It has been promised."
Harrenhal? Has my father taken leave of his senses? Jaime raised his hands. "I'll have these chains off."
Urswyck's chuckle was papery dry.
Something is very wrong here. Jaime gave no sign of his discomfiture, but only smiled. "Did I say
something amusing?"
Noseless grinned. "You're the funniest thing I seen since Biter chewed that septa's teats off."


"You and your father lost too many battles," offered the Dornishman. "We had to trade our lion pelts for
wolfskins."
Urswyck spread his hands. "What Timeon means to say is that the Brave Companions are no longer in
the hire of House Lannister. We now serve Lord Bolton, and the King in the North."
Jaime gave him a cold, contemptuous smile. "And men say I have shit for honor?"
Urswyck was unhappy with that comment. At his signal, two of the Mummers grasped Jaime by the
arms and Rorge drove a mailed fist into his stomach. As he doubled over grunting, he heard the wench
protesting, "Stop, he's not to be harmed! Lady Catelyn sent us, an exchange of captives, he's under my
protection. . . " Rorge hit him again, driving the air from his lungs. Brienne dove for her sword beneath the
waters of the brook, but the Mummers were on her before she could lay hands on it. Strong as she was,
it took four of them to beat her into submission.
By the end the wench's face was as swollen and bloody as Jaime's must have been, and they had
knocked out two of her teeth. It did nothing to improve her appearance. Stumbling and bleeding, the two
captives were dragged back through the woods to the horses, Brienne limping from the thigh wound he'd
given her in the brook. Jaime felt sorry for her. She would lose her maidenhood tonight, he had no doubt.
That noseless bastard would have her for a certainty, and some of the others would likely take a turn.
The Dornishman bound them back to back atop Brienne's plow horse while the other Mummers were
stripping Cleos Frey to his skin to divvy up his possessions. Rorge won the bloodstained surcoat with its
proud Lannister and Frey quarterings. The arrows had punched holes through lions and towers alike.
"I hope you're pleased, wench," Jaime whispered at Brienne. He coughed, and spat out a mouthful of
blood. "If you'd armed me, we'd never have been taken." She made no answer. There's a pig-stubborn
bitch, he thought. But brave, yes. He could not take that from her. "When we make camp for the night,
you'll be raped, and more than once," he warned her. "You'd be wise not to resist. If you fight them,
you'll lose more than a few teeth."
He felt Brienne's back stiffen against his. "Is that what you would do, if you were a woman?"
If I were a woman I'd be Cersei. "If I were a woman, I'd make them kill me. But I'm not." Jaime kicked
their horse to a trot. " Urswyck! A word!"
The cadaverous sellsword in the ragged leather cloak reined up a moment, then fell in beside him. "What
would you have of me, ser? And mind your tongue, or I'll chastise you again."
"Gold," said Jaime. "You do like gold?"
Urswyck studied him through reddened eyes. "It has its uses, I do confess."
Jaime gave Urswyck a knowing smile. "All the gold in Casterly Rock. Why let the goat enjoy it? Why
not take us to King's Landing, and collect my ransom for yourself ? Hers as well, if you like. Tarth is
called the Sapphire Isle, a maiden told me once." The wench squirmed at that, but said nothing.
"Do you take me for a tumcloak?"
"Certainly. What else?"


For half a heartbeat Urswyck considered the proposition. "King's Landing is a long way, and your father
is there. Lord Tywin may resent us for selling Harrenhal to Lord Bolton."
He's cleverer than he looks. Jaime had been been looking forward to hanging the wretch while his
pockets bulged with gold. "Leave me to deal with my father. I'll get you a royal pardon for any crimes
you have committed. I'll get you a knighthood."
"Ser Urswyck," the man said, savoring the sound. "How proud my dear wife would be to hear it. If only
I hadn't killed her." He sighed. "And what of brave Lord Vargo?"
"Shall I sing you a verse of 'The Rains of Castamere'? The goat won't be quite so brave when my father
gets hold of him."
"And how will he do that? Are your father's arms so long that they can reach over the walls of Harrenhal
and pluck us out?"
"If need be." King Harren's monstrous folly had fallen before, and it could fall again. "Are you such a fool
as to think the goat can outfight the lion?"
Urswyck leaned over and slapped him lazily across the face. The sheer casual insolence of it was worse
than the blow itself. He does not fear me, Jaime realized, with a chill. "I have heard enough, Kingslayer. I
would have to be a great fool indeed to believe the promises of an oathbreaker like you." He kicked his
horse and galloped smartly ahead.
Aerys, Jaime thought resentfully. It always turns on Aerys. He swayed with the motion of his horse,
wishing for a sword. Two swords would be even better. One for the wench and one for me. We'd die,
but we'd take half of them down to hell with us. "Why did you tell him Tarth was the Sapphire Isle?"
Brienne whispered when Urswyck was out of earshot. "He's like to think my father's rich in gemstones..."
"You best pray he does."
"Is every word you say a lie, Kingslayer? Tarth is called the Sapphire Isle for the blue of its waters."
"Shout it a little louder, wench, I don't think Urswyck heard you. The sooner they know how little you're
worth in ransom, the sooner the rapes begin. Every man here will mount you, but what do you care? just
close your eyes, open your legs, and pretend they're all Lord Renly."
Mercifully, that shut her mouth for a time.
The day was almost done by the time they found Vargo Hoat, sacking a small sept with another dozen
of his Brave Companions. The leaded windows had been smashed, the carved wooden gods dragged
out into the sunlight. The fattest Dothraki Jaime had ever seen was sitting on the Mother's chest when
they rode up, prying out her chalcedony eyes with the point of his knife. Nearby, a skinny balding septon
hung upside down from the limb of a spreading chestnut tree. Three of the Brave Companions were using
his corpse for an archery butt. One of them must have been good; the dead man had arrows through
both of his eyes.
When the sellswords spied Urswyck and the captives, a cry went up in half a dozen tongues. The goat
was seated by a cookflre eating a half-cooked bird off a skewer, grease and blood running down his
fingers into his long stringy beard. He wiped his hands on his tunic and rose. "Kingthlayer," he slobbered.


"You are my captifth."
"My lord, I am Brienne of Tarth," the wench called out. "Lady Catelyn Stark commanded me to deliver
Ser Jaime to his brother at King's Landing."
The goat gave her a disinterested glance. "Thilence her."
"Hear me," Brienne entreated as Rorge cut the ropes that bound her to Jaime, "in the name of the King in
the North, the king you serve, please, listen - "
Rorge dragged her off the horse and began to kick her. "See that you don't break any bones," Urswyck
called out to him. "The horse-faced bitch is worth her weight in sapphires."
The Dornishman Timeon and a foul-smelling Ibbenese pulled Jaime down from the saddle and shoved
him roughly toward the cookfire. It would not have been hard for him to have grasped one of their sword
hilts as they manhandled him, but there were too many, and he was still in fetters. He might cut down one
or two, but in the end he would die for it. Jaime was not ready to die just yet, and certainly not for the
likes of Brienne of Tarth.
"Thith ith a thweet day," Vargo Hoat said. Around his neck hung a chain of linked coins, coins of every
shape and size, cast and hammered, bearing the likenesses of kings, wizards, gods and demons, and all
manner of fanciful beasts.
Coins from every land where he has fought, Jaime remembered. Greed was the key to this man. If he
was turned once, he can be turned again. "Lord Vargo, you were foolish to leave my father's service, but
it is not too late to make amends. He will pay well for me, you know it."
"Oh yeth," said Vargo Hoat. "Half the gold in Cathterly Rock, I thall have. But firth I mutht thend him a
methage." He said something in his slithery goatish tongue.
Urswyck shoved him in the back, and a jester in green and pink motley
kicked his legs out from under him. When he hit the ground one of the archers grabbed the chain
between Jaime's wrists and used it to yank his arms out in front of him. The fat Dothraki put aside his
knife to unsheathe a huge curved arakh, the wickedly sharp scythe-sword the horselords loved.
They mean to scare me. The fool hopped on Jaime's back, giggling, as the Dothraki swaggered toward
him. The goat wants me to piss my breeches and beg his mercy, but he'll never have that pleasure. He
was a Lannister of Casterly Rock, Lord Commander of the Kingsguard; no sellsword would make him
scream.
Sunlight ran silver along the edge of the arakh as it came shivering down, almost too fast to see. And
Jaime screamed.
Chapter 22
Arya


The small square keep was half a ruin, and so too the great grey knight who lived there. He was so old
he did not understand their questions. No matter what was said to him, he would only smile and mutter,
"I held the bridge against Ser Maynard. Red hair and a black temper, he had, but he could not move me.
Six wounds I took before I killed him. Six!"
The maester who cared for him was a young man, thankfully. After the old knight had drifted to sleep in
his chair, he took them aside and said, "I fear you seek a ghost. We had a bird, ages ago, half a year at
least. The Lannisters caught Lord Beric near the Gods Eye. He was hanged."
"Aye, hanged he was, but Thoros cut him down before he died." Lem's broken nose was not so red or
swollen as it had been, but it was healing crooked, giving his face a lopsided look. "His lordship's a hard
man to kill, he is."
"And a hard man to find, it would seem," the maester said. "Have you asked the Lady of the Leaves?"
"We shall," said Greenbeard.
The next morning, as they crossed the little stone bridge behind the keep, Gendry wondered if this was
the bridge the old man had fought over. No one knew. "Most like it is," said Jack-Be-Lucky. "Don't see
no other bridges."
"You'd know for certain if there was a song," said Tom Sevenstrings. "One good song, and we'd know
who Ser Maynard used to be and why he wanted to cross this bridge so bad. Poor old Lychester might
be as far famed as the Dragonknight if he'd only had sense enough to keep a singer."
"Lord Lychester's sons died in Robert's Rebellion," grumbled Lem. "Some on one side, some on Vother.
He's not been right in the head since. No bloody song's like to help any o' that."
"What did the maester mean, about asking the Lady of the Leaves?" Arya asked Anguy as they rode.
The archer smiled. "Wait and see."
Three days later, as they rode through a yellow wood, Jack-Be-Lucky unslung his hom and blew a
signal, a different one than before. The sounds had scarcely died away when rope ladders unrolled from
the limbs of trees. "Hobble the horses and up we go," said Tom, half singing the words. They climbed to
a hidden village in the upper branches, a maze of rope walkways and little moss-covered houses
concealed behind walls of red and gold, and were taken to the Lady of the Leaves, a stick-thin
white-haired woman dressed in roughspun. "We cannot stay here much longer, with autumn on us," she
told them. "A dozen wolves went down the Hayford road nine days past, hunting. If they'd chanced to
look up they might have seen us."
"You've not seen Lord Beric?" asked Tom Sevenstrings.
"He's dead." The woman sounded sick. "The Mountain caught him, and drove a dagger through his eye.
A begging brother told us. He had it from the lips of a man who saw it happen."
"That's an old stale tale, and false," said Lem. "The lightning lord's not so easy to kill. Ser Gregor might
have put his eye out, but a man don't die o' that. lack could tell you."
"Well, I never did," said one-eyed Jack-Be-Lucky. "My father got himself good and hanged by Lord


Piper's bailiff, my brother Wat got sent to the Wall, and the Lannisters killed my other brothers. An eye,
that's nothing."
"You swear he's not dead?" The woman clutched Lem's arm. "Bless you, Lem, that's the best tidings
we've had in half a year. May the Warrior defend him, and the red priest too."
The next night they found shelter beneath the scorched shell of a sept, in a burned village called
Sallydance. Only shards remained of its windows of leaded glass, and the aged septon who greeted them
said the looters had even made off with the Mother's costly robes, the Crone's gilded lantern, and the
silver crown the Father had worn. "They hacked the Maiden's breasts off too, though those were only
wood," he told them. "And the eyes, the eyes were jet and lapis and mother-of-pearl, they pried them out
with their knives. May the Mother have mercy on them all."
"Whose work was this?" said Lem Lemoncloak. "Mummers?"
"No," the old man said. "Northmen, they were. Savages who worship trees. They wanted the
Kingslayer, they said."
Arya heard him, and chewed her lip. She could feel Gendry looking at her. it made her angry and
ashamed.
There were a dozen men living in the vault beneath the sept, amongst cobwebs and roots and broken
wine casks, but they had no word of Beric Dondarrion either. Not even their leader, who wore
soot-blackened armor and a crude lightning bolt on his cloak. When Greenbeard saw Arya staring at
him, he laughed and said, "The lightning lord is everywhere and nowhere, skinny squirrel."
"I'm not a squirrel," she said. "I'll almost be a woman soon. I'll be one-and-ten."
"Best watch out I don't marry you, then!" He tried to tickle her under the chin, but Arya slapped his
stupid hand away.
Lem and Gendry played tiles with their hosts that night, while Tom Sevenstrings sang a silly song about
Big Belly Ben and the High Septon's goose. Anguy let Arya try his longbow, but no matter how hard she
bit her lip she could not draw it. "You need a lighter bow, milady," the freckled bowman said. "If there's
seasoned wood at Riverrun, might be I'll make you one."
Tom overheard him, and broke off his song. "You're a young fool, Archer. If we go to Riverrun it will
only be to collect her ransom, won't be no time for you to sit about making bows. Be thankful if you get
out with your hide. Lord Hoster was hanging outlaws before you were shaving. And that son of his ... a
man who hates music can't be trusted, I always say."
"It's not music he hates," said Lem. "It's you, fool."
"Well, he has no cause. The wench was willing to make a man of him, is it my fault he drank too much to
do the deed?"
Lem snorted through his broken nose. "Was it you who made a song of it, or some other bloody arse in
love with his own voice?"
"I only sang it the once," Tom complained. "And who's to say the song was about him? 'Twas a song
about a fish."


"A floppy fish," said Anguy, laughing.
Arya didn't care what Tom's stupid songs were about. She turned to Harwin. "What did he mean about
ransom?"
"We have sore need of horses, milady. Armor as well. Swords, shields, spears. All the things coin can
buy. Aye, and seed for planting. Winter is coming, remember?" He touched her under the chin. "You will
not be the first highbom captive we've ransomed. Nor the last, I'd hope."
That much was true, Arya knew. Knights were captured and ransomed all the time, and sometimes
women were too. But what if Robb won't pay their price? She wasn't a famous knight, and kings were
supposed to put the realm before their sisters. And her lady mother, what would she say? Would she still
want her back, after all the things she'd done? Arya chewed her lip and wondered.
The next day they rode to a place called High Heart, a hill so lofty that from atop it Arya felt as though
she could see half the world. Around its brow stood a ring of huge pale stumps, all that remained of a
circle of once-mighty weirwoods. Arya and Gendry walked around the hill to count them. There were
thirty-one, some so wide that she could have used them for a bed.
High Heart had been sacred to the children of the forest, Tom Sevenstrings told her, and some of their
magic lingered here still. "No harm can ever come to those as sleep here," the singer said. Arya thought
that must be true; the hill was so high and the surrounding lands so flat that no enemy could approach
unseen.
The smallfolk hereabouts shunned the place, Tom told her; it was said to be haunted by the ghosts of the
children of the forest who had died here when the Andal king named Erreg the Kinslayer had cut down
their grove. Arya knew about the children of the forest, and about the Andals too, but ghosts did not
frighten her. She used to hide in the crypts of Winterfell when she was little, and play games of
come-into-my-castle and monsters and maidens amongst the stone kings on their thrones.
Yet even so, the hair on the back of her neck stood up that night. She had been asleep, but the storm
woke her. The wind pulled the coverlet right off her and sent it swirling into the bushes. When she went
after it she heard voices.
Beside the embers of their campfire, she saw Tom, Lem, and Greenbeard talking to a tiny little woman,
a foot shorter than Arya and older than Old Nan, all stooped and wrinkled and leaning on a gnarled
black cane. Her white hair was so long it came almost to the ground. When the wind gusted it blew about
her head in a fine cloud. Her flesh was whiter, the color of milk, and it seemed to Arya that her eyes were
red, though it was hard to tell from thebushes. "The old gods stir and will not let me sleep," she heard the
woman say. "I dreamt I saw a shadow with a burning heart butchering a golden stag, aye. I dreamt of a
man without a face, waiting on a bridge that swayed and swung. On his shoulder perched a drowned
crow with seaweed hanging from his wings. I dreamt of a roaring river and a woman that was a fish.
Dead she drifted, with red tears on her cheeks, but when her eyes did open, oh, I woke from terror. All
this I dreamt, and more. Do you have gifts for me, to pay me for my dreams?"
"Dreams," grumbled Lem Lemoncloak, "what good are dreams? Fish women and drowned crows. I had
a dream myself last night. I was kissing this tavern wench I used to know. Are you going to pay me for
that, old woman?"
"The wench is dead," the woman hissed. "Only worms may kiss her now." And then to Tom


Sevenstrings she said, "I'll have my song or I'll have you gone."
So the singer played for her, so soft and sad that Arya only heard snatches of the words, though the tune
was half-familiar. Sansa would know it, I bet. Her sister had known all the songs, and she could even
play a little, and sing so sweetly. All I could ever do was shout the words.
The next morning the little white woman was nowhere to be seen. As they saddled their horses, Arya
asked Tom Sevenstrings if the children of the forest still dwelled on High Heart. The singer chuckled.
"Saw her, did you?"
"Was she a ghost?"
"Do ghosts complain of how their joints creak? No, she's only an old dwarf woman. A queer one,
though, and evil-eyed. But she knows things she has no business knowing, and sometimes she'll tell you if
she likes the look of you."
"Did she like the looks of you?" Arya asked doubtfully.
The singer laughed. "The sound of me, at least. She always makes me sing the same bloody song,
though. Not a bad song, mind you, but I know others just as good." He shook his head. "What matters
is, we have the scent now. You'll soon be seeing Thoros and the lightning lord, I'll wager."
"If you're their men, why do they hide from you?"
Tom Sevenstrings rolled his eyes at that, but Harwin gave her an answer. "I wouldn't call it hiding,
milady, but it's true, Lord Beric moves about a lot, and seldom lets on what his plans are. That way no
one can betray him. By now there must be hundreds of us sworn to him, maybe thousands, but it
wouldn't do for us all to trail along behind him. We'd eat the country bare, or get butchered in a battle by
some bigger host. The way we're scattered in little bands, we can strike in a dozen places at once, and
be off somewhere else before they know. And when one of us is caught and put to the question, well, we
can't tell them where to find Lord Beric no matter what they do to us." He hesitated. "You know what it
means, to be put to the question?"
Arya nodded. "Tickling, they called it. Polliver and Raff and all." She told them about the village by the
Gods Eye where she and Gendry had been caught, and the questions that the Tickler had asked. "Is
there gold hidden in the village?" he would always begin. "Silver, gems? Is there food? Where is Lord
Beric? Which of you village folk helped him? Where did he go? How many men did he have with him?
How many knights? How many bowmen? How many were horsed? How are they armed? How many
wounded? Where did they go, did you say?" just thinking of it, she could hear the shrieks again, and
smell the stench of blood and shit and burning flesh. "He always asked the same questions," she told the
outlaws solemnly, "but he changed the tickling every day."
"No child should be made to suffer that," Harwin said when she was
done. "The Mountain lost half his men at the Stone Mill, we hear. Might be this Tickler's floating down
the Red Fork even now, with fish biting at his face. If not, well, it's one more crime they'll answer for. I've
heard his lordship say this war began when the Hand sent him out to bring the king's justice to Gregor
Clegane, and that's how he means for it to end." He gave her shoulder a reassuring pat. "You best mount
up, milady. It's a long day's ride to Acorn Hall, but at the end of it we'll have a roof above our heads and
a hot supper in our bellies."


it was a long day's ride, but as dusk was settling they forded a brook and came up on Acorn Hall, with
its stone curtain walls and great oaken keep. Its master was away fighting in the retinue of his master,
Lord Vance, the castle gates closed and barred in his absence. But his lady wife was an old friend of
Tom Sevenstrings, and Anguy said they'd once been lovers. Anguy often rode beside her; he was closer
to her in age than any of them but Gendry, and he told her droll tales of the Dornish Marches. He never
fooled her, though. He's not my friend. He's only staying close to watch me and make sure I don't ride off
again. Well, Arya could watch as well. Syrio Forel had taught her how.
Lady Smallwood welcomed the outlaws kindly enough, though she gave them a tongue lashing for
dragging a young girl through the war. She became even more wroth when Lem let slip that Arya was
highborn. "Who dressed the poor child in those Bolton rags?" she demanded of them. "That badge ...
there's many a man who would hang her in half a heartbeat for wearing a flayed man on her breast." Arya
promptly found herself marched upstairs, forced into a tub, and doused with scalding hot water. Lady
Smallwood's maidservants scrubbed her so hard it felt like they were flaying her themselves. They even
dumped in some stinkysweet stuff that smelled like flowers.
And afterward, they insisted she dress herself in girl's things, brown woolen stockings and a light linen
shift, and over that a light green gown with acorns embroidered all over the bodice in brown thread, and
more acorns bordering the hem. "My great-aunt is a septa at a motherhouse in Oldtown," Lady
Smallwood said as the women laced the gown up Arya's back. "I sent my daughter there when the war
began. She'll have outgrown these things by the time she returns, no doubt. Are you fond of dancing,
child? My Carellen's a lovely dancer. She sings beautifully as well. What do you like to do?"
She scuffed a toe amongst the rushes. "Needlework."
"Very restful, isn't it?"
"Well," said Arya, "not the way I do it."
"No? I have always found it so. The gods give each of us our little gifts and talents, and it is meant for us
to use them, my aunt always says. Any act can be a prayer, if done as well as we are able. Isn't that a
lovely thought? Remember that the next time you do your needlework. Do you work at it every day?"
"I did till I lost Needle. My new one's not as good."
,'In times like these, we all must make do as best we can." Lady Smallwood fussed at the bodice of the
gown. "Now you look a proper young lady."
I'm not a lady, Arya wanted to tell her, I'm a wolf.
"I do not know who you are, child," the woman said, "and it may be that's for the best. Someone
important, I fear." She smoothed down Arya's collar. "In times like these, it is better to be insignificant.
Would that I could keep you here with me. That would not be safe, though. I have walls, but too few
men to hold them." She sighed.
Supper was being served in the hall by the time Arya was all washed and combed and dressed. Gendry
took one look and laughed so hard that wine came out his nose, until Harwin gave him a thwack
alongside his ear. The meal was plain but filling; mutton and mushrooms, brown bread, pease pudding,
and baked apples with yellow cheese. When the food had been cleared and the servants sent away,
Greenbeard lowered his voice to ask if her ladyship had word of the lightning lord.


"Word?" She smiled. "They were here not a fortnight past. Them and a dozen more, driving sheep. I
could scarcely believe my eyes. Thoros gave me three as thanks. You've eaten one tonight."
"Thoros herding sheep?" Anguy laughed aloud.
"I grant you it was an odd sight, but Thoros claimed that as a priest he knew how to tend a flock."
"Aye, and shear them too," chuckled Lem Lernoncloak.
"Someone could make a rare fine song of that." Tom plucked a string on his woodharp.
Lady Smallwood gave him a withering look. "Someone who doesn't rhyme carry on with Dondarrion,
perhaps. Or play 'Oh, Lay My Sweet Lass Down in the Grass' to every milkmaid in the shire and leave
two of them with big bellies."
"It was 'Let Me Drink Your Beauty,"' said Tom defensively, "and milkmaids are always glad to hear it.
As was a certain highbom lady I do recall. I play to please."
Her nostrils flared. "The riverlands are full of maids you've pleased, all drinking tansy tea. You'd think a
man as old as you would know to spill his seed on their bellies. Men will be calling you Tom Sevensons
before much longer."
"As it happens," said Tom, "I passed seven many years ago. And fine boys they are too, with voices
sweet as nightingales." Plainly he did not care for the subject.
"Did his lordship say where he was bound, milady?" asked Harwin.
"Lord Beric never shares his plans, but there's hunger down near Stoney Sept and the Threepenny
Wood. I should look for him there." She took a sip of wine. "You'd best know, I've had less pleasant
callers as well. A pack of wolves came howling around my gates, thinking I might have Jaime Lannister in
here."
Tom stopped his plucking. "Then it's true, the Kingslayer is loose again?
Lady Smallwood gave him a scornful look. "I hardly think they'd be hunting him if he was chained up
under Riverrun."
"What did m'lady tell them?" asked Jack-Be-Lucky.
"Why, that I had Ser Jaime naked in my bed, but I'd left him much too exhausted to come down. One of
them had the effrontery to call me a liar, so we saw them off with a few quarrels. I believe they made for
Blackbottom Bend."
Arya squirmed restlessly in her seat. "What northmen was it, who came looking after the Kingslayer?"
Lady Smallwood seemed surprised that she'd spoken. "They did not give their names, child, but they
wore black, with the badge of a white sun on the breast."
A white sun on black was the sigil of Lord Karstark, Arya thought. Those were Robb's men. She
wondered if they were still close. If she could give the outlaws the slip and find them, maybe they would


take her to her mother at Riverrun ...
"Did they say how Lannister came to escape?" Lem asked.
"They did," said Lady Smallwood. "Not that I believe a word of it. They claimed that Lady Catelyn set
him free."
That startled Tom so badly he snapped a string. "Go on with you," he said. "That's madness."
It's not true, thought Arya. It couldn't be true.
"I thought the same," said Lady Smallwood.
That was when Harwin remembered Arya. "Such talk is not for your ears, milady."
"No, I want to hear."
The outlaws were adamant. "Go on with you, skinny squirrel," said Greenbeard. "Be a good little lady
and go play in the yard while we talk, now."
Arya stalked away angry, and would have slammed the door if it hadn't been so heavy. Darkness had
settled over Acorn Hall. A few torches burned along the walls, but that was all. The gates of the little
castle were closed and barred. She had promised Harwin that she would not try and run away again, she
knew, but that was before they started telling lies about her mother.
"Arya?" Gendry had followed her out. "Lady Smallwood said there's a smithy. Want to have a look?"
"If you want." She had nothing else to do.
"This Thoros," Gendry said as they walked past the kennels, "is he the same Thoros who lived in the
castle at King's Landing? A red priest, fat, with a shaved head?"
"I think so." Arya had never spoken to Thoros at King's Landing that she could recall, but she knew
who he was. He and Jalabhar Xho had been the most colorful figures at Robert's court, and Thoros was
a great friend of the king as well.
"He won't remember me, but he used to come to our forge." The Smallwood forge had not been used in
some time, though the smith had hung his tools neatly on the wall. Gendry lit a candle and set it on the
anvil while he took down a pair of tongs. "My master always scolded him about his flaming swords. It
was no way to treat good steel, he'd say, but this Thoros never used good steel. He'd just dip some
cheap sword in wildfire and set it alight. It was only an alchemist's trick, my master said, but it scared the
horses and some of the greener knights."
She screwed up her face, trying to remember if her father had ever talked about Thoros. "He isn't very
priestly, is he?"
"No," Gendry admitted. "Master Mott said Thoros could outdrink even King Robert. They were pease
in a pod, he told me, both gluttons and sots."
"You shouldn't call the king a sot." Maybe King Robert had drunk a lot, but he'd been her father's friend.


"I was talking about Thoros." Gendry reached out with the tongs as if to pinch her face, but Arya
swatted them away. "He liked feasts and tourneys, that was why King Robert was so fond of him. And
this Thoros was brave. When the walls of Pyke crashed down, he was the first through the breach. He
fought with one of his flaming swords, setting ironmen afire with every slash."
"I wish I had a flaming sword." Arya could think of lots of people she'd like to set on fire.
"It's only a trick, I told you. The wildfire ruins the steel. My master sold Thoros a new sword after every
tourney. Every time they would have a fight about the price." Gendry hung the tongs back up and took
down the heavy hammer. "Master Mott said it was time I made my first longsword. He gave me a sweet
piece of steel, and I knew just how I wanted to shape the blade. Only Yoren came, and took me away
for the Night's Watch."
"You can still make swords if you want," said Arya. "You can make them for my brother Robb when we
get to Riverrun."
"Riverrun." Gendry put the hammer down and looked at her. "You look different now. Like a proper
little girl."
"I look like an oak tree, with all these stupid acorns."
"Nice, though. A nice oak tree." He stepped closer, and sniffed at her. "You even smell nice for a
change."
"You don't. You stink." Arya shoved him back against the anvil and made to run, but Gendry caught her
arm. She stuck a foot between his legs and tripped him, but he yanked her down with him, and they
rolled across the floor of the smithy. He was very strong, but she was quicker. Every time he tried to hold
her still she wriggled free and punched him. Gendry only laughed at the blows, which made her mad. He
finally caught both her wrists in one hand and started to tickle her with the other, so Arya slammed her
knee between his legs, and wrenched free. Both of them were covered in dirt, and one sleeve was tom.
on her stupid acorn dress. "I bet I don't look so nice now," she shouted.
Tom was singing when they returned to the hall.
My featherbed is deep and soft, and there I'll lay you down,
I'll dress you all in yellow silk, and on your head a crown.
For you shall be my lady love, and I shall be your lord.
I'll always keep you warm and safe, and guard you with my sword.
Harwin took one look at them and burst out laughing, and Anguy smiled one of his stupid freckly smiles
and said, "Are we certain this one is a highbom lady?" But Lem Lernoncloak gave Gendry a clout
alongside the head. "You want to fight, fight with me! She's a girl, and half your age! You keep your
hands off o' her, you hear me?"
"I started it " said Arya. "Gendry was just talking."
"Leave the boy, Lem," said Harwin. "Arya did start it, I have no doubt. She was much the same at
Winterfell."


Tom winked at her as he sang:
And how she smiled and how she laughed, the maiden of the tree.
She spun away and said to him, no featherbed for me.
I'll wear a gown of golden leaves, and bind my hair with grass,
But you can be my forest love, and me your forest lass.
"I have no gowns of leaves," said Lady Smallwood with a small fond smile, "but Carellen left some other
dresses that might serve. Come, child, let us go upstairs and see what we can find."
It was even worse than before; Lady Smallwood insisted that Arya take another bath, and cut and comb
her hair besides; the dress she put her in this time was sort of lilac-colored, and decorated with little baby
pearls. The only good thing about it was that it was so delicate that no one could expect her to ride in it.
So the next morning as they broke their fast, Lady Smallwood gave her breeches, belt, and tunic to wear,
and a brown doeskin jerkin dotted with iron studs. "They were my son's things," she said. "He died when
he was seven."
"I'm sorry, my lady." Arya suddenly felt bad for her, and ashamed. "I'm sorry I tore the acorn dress too.
it was pretty."
"Yes, child. And so are you. Be brave."
Chapter 23
DAENERYS
In the center of the Plaza of Pride stood a red brick fountain whose waters smelled of brimstone, and in
the center of the fountain a monstrous harpy made of hammered bronze. Twenty feet tall she reared. She
had a woman's face, with gilded hair, ivory eyes, and pointed ivory teeth. Water gushed yellow from her
heavy breasts. But in place of arms she had the wings of a bat or a dragon, her legs were the legs of an
eagle, and behind she wore a scorpion's curled and venomous tail.
The harpy of Ghis, Dany thought. Old Ghis had fallen five thousand years ago, if she remembered true;
its legions shattered by the might of young Valyria, its brick walls pulled down, its streets and buildings
turned to ash and cinder by dragonflame, its very fields sown with salt, sulfur, and skulls. The gods of
Ghis were dead, and so too its people; these Astapori were mongrels, Ser Jorah said. Even the Ghiscari
tongue was largely forgotten; the slave cities spoke the High Valyrian of their conquerors, or what they
had made of it.
Yet the symbol of the Old Empire still endured here, though this bronze monster had a heavy chain
dangling from her talons, an open manacle at either end. The harpy of Ghis had a thunderbolt in her
claws. This is the harpy of Astapor.


"Tell the Westerosi whore to lower her eyes," the slaver Kraznys mo Nakloz complained to the slave girl
who spoke for him. "I deal in meat, not metal. The bronze is not for sale. Tell her to look at the soldiers.
Even the dim purple eyes of a sunset savage can see how magnificent my creatures are, surely."
Kraznys's High Valyrian was twisted and thickened by the characteristic
growl of Ghis, and flavored here and there with words of slaver argot. Dany understood him well
enough, but she smiled and looked blankly at the slave girl, as if wondering what he might have said.
'The Good Master Kraznys asks, are they not magnificent?" The girl spoke the Common Tongue well,
for one who had never been to Westeros. No older than ten, she had the round flat face, dusky skin, and
golden eyes of Naath. The Peaceful People, her folk were called. All agreed that they made the best
slaves.
"They might be adequate to my needs," Dany answered. It had been Ser Jorah's suggestion that she
speak only Dothraki and the Common Tongue while in Astapor. My bear is more clever than he looks.
"Tell me of their training."
"The Westerosi woman is pleased with them, but speaks no praise, to keep the price down," the
translator told her master. "She wishes to know how they were trained."
Kraznys mo Nakloz bobbed his head. He smelled as if he'd bathed in raspberries, this slaver, and his
jutting red-black beard glistened with oil. He has larger breasts than I do, Dany reflected. She could see
them through the thin sea-green silk of the gold-fringed tokar he wound about his body and over one
shoulder. His left hand held the tokar in place as he walked, while his right clasped a short leather whip.
"Are all Westerosi pigs so ignorant?" he complained. "All the world knows that the Unsullied are masters
of spear and shield and shortsword." He gave Dany a broad smile. "Tell her what she would know, slave,
and be quick about it. The day is hot."
That much at least is no lie. A matched pair of slave girls stood behind them, holding a striped silk
awning over their heads, but even in the shade Dany felt light-headed, and Kraznys was perspiring freely.
The Plaza of Pride had been baking in the sun since dawn. Even through the thickness of her sandals, she
could feel the warmth of the red bricks underfoot. Waves of heat rose off them shimmering to make the
stepped pyramids of Astapor around the plaza seem half a dream.
If the Unsullied felt the heat, however, they gave no hint of it. They could be made of brick themselves,
the way they stand there. A thousand had been marched out of their barracks for her inspection; drawn
up in ten ranks of one hundred before the fountain and its great bronze harpy, they stood stiffly at
attention, their stony eyes fixed straight ahead. They wore nought but white linen clouts knotted about
their loins, and conical bronze helms topped with a sharpened spike a foot tall. Kraznys had commanded
them to lay down their spears and shields, and doff their swordbelts and quilted tunics, so the Queen of
Westeros might better inspect the lean hardness of their bodies.
"They are chosen young, for size and speed and strength," the slave
told her. "They begin their training at five. Every day they train from dawn to dusk, until they have
mastered the shortsword, the shield, and the three spears. The training is most rigorous, Your Grace.
Only one boy in three survives it. This is well known. Among the Unsullied it is said that on the day they
win their spiked cap, the worst is done with, for no duty that will ever fall to them could be as hard as
their training."


Kraznys mo Nakloz supposedly spoke no word of the Common Tongue, but he bobbed his head as he
listened, and from time to time gave the slave girl a poke with the end of his lash. "Tell her that these have
been standing here for a day and a night, with no food nor water. Tell her that they will stand until they
drop if I should command it, and when nine hundred and ninety-nine have collapsed to die upon the
bricks, the last will stand there still, and never move until his own death claims him. Such is their courage.
Tell her that."
"I call that madness, not courage," said Arstan Whitebeard, when the solemn little scribe was done. He
tapped the end of his hardwood staff against the bricks, tap tap, as if to tell his displeasure. The old man
had not wanted to sail to Astapor; nor did he favor buying this slave army. A queen should hear all sides
before reaching a decision. That was why Dany had brought him with her to the Plaza of Pride, not to
keep her safe. Her bloodriders would do that well enough. Ser Jorah Mormont she had left aboard
Balerion to guard her people and her dragons. Much against her inclination, she had locked the dragons
belowdecks. It was too dangerous to let them fly freely over the city; the world was all too full of men
who would gladly kill them for no better reason than to name themselves dragonslayer.
"What did the smelly old man say?" the slaver demanded of his translator. When she told him, he smiled
and said, "Inform the savages that we call this obedience. Others may be stronger or quicker or larger
than the Unsullied. Some few may even equal their skill with sword and spear and shield. But nowhere
between the seas will you ever find any more obedient."
"Sheep are obedient," said Arstan when the words had been translated. He had some Valyrian as well,
though not so much as Dany, but like her he was feigning ignorance.
Kraznys mo Nakloz showed his big white teeth when that was rendered back to him. "A word from me
and these sheep would spill his stinking old bowels on the bricks," he said, "but do not say that. Tell them
that these creatures are more dogs than sheep. Do they eat dogs or horse in these Seven Kingdoms?"
"They prefer pigs and cows, your worship."
"Beef. Pfag. Food for unwashed savages."
ignoring them all, Dany walked slowly down the line of slave soldiers.
The girls followed close behind with the silk awning, to keep her in the shade, but the thousand men
before her enjoyed no such protection. More than half had the copper skins and almond eyes of
Dothraki and Lhazerene, but she saw men of the Free Cities in the ranks as well, along with pale
Qartheen, ebon-faced Summer Islanders, and others whose origins she could not guess. And some had
skins of the same amber hue as Kraznys mo Nakloz, and the bristly red-black hair that marked the
ancient folk of Ghis, who named themselves the harpy's sons. They sell even their ovm kind. It should not
have surprised her. The Dothraki did the same, when khalasar met khalasar in the sea of grass.
Some of the soldiers were tall and some were short. They ranged in age from fourteen to twenty, she
judged. Their cheeks were smooth, and their eyes all the same, be they black or brown or blue or grey
or amber. They are like one man, Dany thought, until she remembered that they were no men at all. The
Unsullied were eunuchs, every one of them. "Why do you cut them?" she asked Kraznys through the
slave girl. "Whole men are stronger than eunuchs, I have always heard."
"A eunuch who is cut young will never have the brute strength of one of your Westerosi knights, this is
true," said Kraznys mo Nakloz when the question was put to him. "A bull is strong as well, but bulls die
every day in the fighting pits. A girl of nine killed one not three days past in Jothiel's Pit. The Unsullied


have something better than strength, tell her. They have discipline. We fight in the fashion of the Old
Empire, yes. They are the lockstep legions of Old Ghis come again, absolutely obedient, absolutely loyal,
and utterly without fear."
Dany listened patiently to the translation.
"Even the bravest men fear death and maiming," Arstan said when the girl was done.
Kraznys smiled again when he heard that. "Tell the old man that he smells of piss, and needs a stick to
hold him up."
"Truly, your worship?"
He poked her with his lash. "No, not truly, are you a girl or a goat, to ask such folly? Say that Unsullied
are not men. Say that death means nothing to them, and maiming less than nothing." He stopped before a
thickset man who had the look of Lhazar about him and brought his whip up sharply, laying a line of
blood across one copper cheek. The eunuch blinked, and stood there, bleeding. "Would you like
another?" asked Kraznys.
"If it please your worship."
It was hard to pretend not to understand. Dany laid a hand on Kraznys's arm before he could raise the
whip again. "Tell the Good Master that I see how strong his Unsullied are, and how bravely they suffer
pain."
Kraznys chuckled when he heard her words in Valyrian. "Tell this
ignorant whore of a westerner that courage has nothing to do with it."
"The Good Master says that was not courage, Your Grace."
"Tell her to open those slut's eyes of hers."
"He begs you attend this carefully, Your Grace."
Kraznys moved to the next eunuch in line, a towering youth with the blue eyes and flaxen hair of Lys.
"Your sword," he said. The eunuch knelt, unsheathed the blade, and offered it up hilt first. It was a
shortsword, made more for stabbing than for slashing, but the edge looked razor-sharp. "Stand,"
Kraznys commanded.
"Your worship." The eunuch stood, and Kraznys mo Nakloz slid the sword slowly up his torso, leaving a
thin red line across his belly and between his ribs. Then he jabbed the swordpoint in beneath a wide pink
nipple and began to work it back and forth.
"What is he doing?" Dany demanded of the girl, as the blood ran down the man's chest.
"Tell the cow to stop her bleating," said Kraznys, without waiting for the translation. "This will do him no
great harm. Men have no need of nipples, eunuchs even less so." The nipple hung by a thread of skin. He
slashed, and sent it tumbling to the bricks, leaving behind a round red eye copiously weeping blood. The
eunuch did not move, until Kraznys offered him back his sword, hilt first. "Here, I'm done with you."


"This one is pleased to have served you."
Kraznys turned back to Dany. "They feel no pain, you see."
"How can that be?" she demanded through the scribe.
"The wine of courage," was the answer he gave her. "It is no true wine at all, but made from deadly
nightshade, bloodfly larva, black lotus root, and many secret things. They drink it with every meal from
the day they are cut, and with each passing year feel less and less. It makes them fearless in battle. Nor
can they be tortured. Tell the savage her secrets are safe with the Unsullied. She may set them to guard
her councils and even her bedchamber, and never a worry as to what they might overhear.
"In Yunkai and Meereen, eunuchs are often made by removing a boy's testicles, but leaving the penis.
Such a creature is infertile, yet often still capable of erection. Only trouble can come of this. We remove
the penis as well, leaving nothing. The Unsullied are the purest creatures on the earth." He gave Dany and
Arstan another of his broad white smiles. "I have heard that in the Sunset Kingdoms men take solemn
vows to keep chaste and father no children, but live only for their duty. Is it not so?"
"It is," Arstan said, when the question was put. "There are many such orders. The macsters of the
Citadel, the septons and septas who serve the Seven, the silent sisters of the dead, the Kingsguard and
the Night's Watch . . . "
"Poor things," growled the slaver, after the translation. "Men were
not made to live thus. Their days are a torment of temptation, any fool must see, and no doubt most
succumb to their baser selves. Not so our Unsullied. They are wed to their swords in a way that your
Sworn Brothers cannot hope to match. No woman can ever tempt them, nor any man."
His girl conveyed the essence of his speech, more politely. "There are other ways to tempt men, besides
the flesh," Arstan Whitebeard objected, when she was done.
"Men, yes, but not Unsullied. Plunder interests them no more than rape. They own nothing but their
weapons. We do not even permit them names."
"No names?" Dany frowned at the little scribe. "Can that be what the Good Master said? They have no
names?"
"It is so, Your Grace."
Kraznys stopped in front of a Ghiscari who might have been his taller fitter brother, and flicked his lash
at a small bronze disk on the swordbelt at his feet. "There is his name. Ask the whore of Westeros
whether she can read Ghiscari glyphs." When Dany admitted that she could not, the slaver turned to the
Unsullied. "What is your name?" he demanded.
"This one's name is Red Flea, your worship."
The girl repeated their exchange in the Common Tongue.
"And yesterday, what was it?"
"Black Rat, your worship."


"The day before?"
"Brown Flea, your worship."
"Before that?"
"This one does not recall, your worship. Blue Toad, perhaps. Or Blue Worm."
"Tell her all their names are such," Kraznys commanded the girl. "It reminds them that by themselves they
are vermin. The name disks are thrown in an empty cask at duty's end, and each dawn plucked up again
at random."
"More madness," said Arstan, when he heard. "How can any man possibly remember a new name every
day?"
"Those who cannot are culled in training, along with those who cannot run all day in full pack, scale a
mountain in the black of night, walk across a bed of coals, or slay an infant."
Dany's mouth surely twisted at that. Did he see, or is he blind as well as cruel? She turned away quickly,
trying to keep her face a mask until she heard the translation. Only then did she allow herself to say,
"Whose infants do they slay?"
"To win his spiked cap, an Unsullied must go to the slave marts with a silver mark, find some wailing
newborn, and kill it before its mother's
eyes. In this way, we make certain that there is no weakness left in them."
She was feeling faint. The heat, she tried to tell herself. "You take a babe from its mother's arms, kill it as
she watches, and pay for her pain with a silver coin?"
When the translation was made for him, Kraznys mo Nakloz laughed aloud. "What a soft mewling fool
this one is. Tell the whore of Westeros that the mark is for the child's owner, not the mother. The
Unsullied are not permitted to steal." He tapped his whip against his leg. "Tell her that few ever fail that
test. The dogs are harder for them, it must be said. We give each boy a puppy on the day that he is cut.
At the end of the first year, he is required to strangle it. Any who cannot are killed, and fed to the
surviving dogs. It makes for a good strong lesson, we find."
Arstan Whitebeard tapped the end of his staff on the bricks as he listened to that. Tap tap tap. Slow and
steady. Tap tap tap. Dany saw him turn his eyes away, as if he could not bear to look at Kraznys any
longer.
"The Good Master has said that these eunuchs cannot be tempted with coin or flesh," Dany told the girl,
"but if some enemy of mine should offer them freedom for betraying me . . . "
"They would kill him out of hand and bring her his head, tell her that," the slaver answered. "Other slaves
may steal and hoard up silver in hopes of buying freedom, but an Unsullied would not take it if the little
mare offered it as a gift. They have no life outside their duty. They are soldiers, and that is all."
"It is soldiers I need," Dany admitted.


"Tell her it is well she came to Astapor, then. Ask her how large an army she wishes to buy."
"How many Unsullied do you have to sell?"
"Eight thousand fully trained and available at present. We sell them only by the unit, she should know. By
the thousand or the century. Once we sold by the ten, as household guards, but that proved unsound.
Ten is too few. They mingle with other slaves, even freemen, and forget who and what they are." Kraznys
waited for that to be rendered in the Common Tongue, and then continued. "This beggar queen must
understand, such wonders do not come cheaply. In Yunkai and Meereen, slave swordsmen can be had
for less than the price of their swords, but Unsullied are the finest foot in all the world, and each
represents many years of training. Tell her they are like Valyrian steel, folded over and over and
hammered for years on end, until they are stronger and more resilient than any metal on earth."
"I know of Valyrian steel," said Dany. "Ask the Good Master if the Unsullied have their own officers."
"You must set your own officers over them. We train them to obey, not to think. If it is wits she wants,
let her buy scribes."
"And their gear?"
"Sword, shield, spear, sandals, and quilted tunic are included," said Kraznys. "And the spiked caps, to
be sure. They will wear such armor as you wish, but you must provide it."
Dany could think of no other questions. She looked at Arstan. "You have lived long in the world,
Whitebeard. Now that you have seen them, what do you say?"
"I say no, Your Grace," the old man answered at once.
"Why?" she asked. "Speak freely." Dany thought she knew what he would say, but she wanted the slave
girl to hear, so Kraznys mo Nakloz might hear later.
"My queen," said Arstan, "there have been no slaves in the Seven Kingdoms for thousands of years. The
old gods and the new alike hold slavery to be an abomination. Evil. If you should land in Westeros at the
head of a slave army, many good men will oppose you for no other reason than that. You will do great
harm to your cause, and to the honor of your House."
"Yet I must have some army," Dany said. "The boy Joffrey will not give me the Iron Throne for asking
politely."
"When the day comes that you raise your banners, half of Westeros will be with you," Whitebeard
promised. "Your brother Rhaegar is still remembered, with great love."
"And my father?" Dany said.
The old man hesitated before saying, "King Aerys is also remembered. He gave the realm many years of
peace. Your Grace, you have no need of slaves. Magister Illyrio can keep you safe while your dragons
grow, and send secret envoys across the narrow sea on your behalf, to sound out the high lords for your
cause."
"Those same high lords who abandoned my father to the Kingslayer and bent the knee to Robert the
Usurper?"


"Even those who bent their knees may yearn in their hearts for the return of the dragons."
"May," said Dany. That was such a slippery word, may. In any language. She turned back to Kraznys
mo Nakloz and his slave girl. "I must consider carefully."
The slaver shrugged. "Tell her to consider quickly. There are many other buyers. Only three days past I
showed these same Unsullied to a corsair king who hopes to buy them all."
"The corsair wanted only a hundred, your worship," Dany heard the slave girl say.
He poked her with the end of the whip. "Corsairs are all liars. He'll buy them all. Tell her that, girl."
Dany knew she would take more than a hundred, if she took any at all. "Remind your Good Master of
who I am. Remind him that I am Daenerys Stormbom, Mother of Dragons, the Unburnt, trueborn queen
of the Seven Kingdoms of Westeros. My blood is the blood of Aegon the Conqueror, and of old Valyria
before him."
Yet her words did not move the plump perfumed slaver, even when rendered in his own ugly tongue.
"Old Ghis ruled an empire when the Valyrians were still fucking sheep," he growled at the poor little
scribe, /land we are the sons of the harpy." He gave a shrug. "My tongue is wasted wagging at women.
East or west, it makes no matter, they cannot decide until they have been pampered and flattered and
stuffed with sweetmeats. Well, if this is my fate, so be it. Tell the whore that if she requires a guide to our
sweet city, Kraznys mo Nakloz will gladly serve her ... and service her as well, if she is more woman than
she looks."
"Good Master Kraznys would be most pleased to show you Astapor while you ponder, Your Grace,"
the translator said.
"I will feed her jellied dog brains, and a fine rich stew of red octopus and unborn puppy." He wiped his
lips.
"Many delicious dishes can be had here, he says."
"Tell her how pretty the pyramids are at night," the slaver growled. "Tell her I will lick honey off her
breasts, or allow her to lick honey off mine if she prefers."
"Astapor is most beautiful at dusk, Your Grace," said the slave girl. "The Good Masters light silk lanterns
on every terrace, so all the pyramids glow with colored lights. Pleasure barges ply the Worm, playing soft
music and calling at the little islands for food and wine and other delights."
"Ask her if she wishes to view our fighting pits," Kraznys added. "Douquor's Pit has a fine folly
scheduled for the evening. A bear and three small boys. One boy will be rolled in honey, one in blood,
and one in rotting fish, and she may wager on which the bear will eat first."
Tap tap tap, Dany heard. Arstan Whitebeard's face was still, but his staff beat out his rage. Tap tap tap.
She made herself smile. "I have my own bear on Balerion," she told the translator, "and he may well eat
me if I do not return to him."
"See," said Kraznys when her words were translated. "It is not the woman who decides, it is this man
she runs to. As ever!"


"Thank the Good Master for his patient kindness," Dany said, "and tell him that I will think on all I
learned here." She gave her arm to Arstan Whitebeard, to lead her back across the plaza to her litter.
Aggo and Jhogo fell in to either side of them, walking with the bowlegged swagger all the horselords
affected when forced to dismount and stride the earth like common mortals.
Dany climbed into her litter frowning, and beckoned Arstan to climb in beside her. A man as old as him
should not be walking in such heat. She did not close the curtains as they got under way. With the sun
beating down so fiercely on this city of red brick, every stray breeze was to be cherished, even if it did
come with a swirl of fine red dust. Besides, I need to see.
Astapor was a queer city, even to the eyes of one who had walked within the House of Dust and bathed
in the Womb of the World beneath the Mother of Mountains. All the streets were made of the same red
brick that had paved the plaza. So too were the stepped pyramids, the deep-dug fighting pits with their
rings of descending seats, the sulfurous fountains and gloomy wine caves, and the ancient walls that
encircled them. So many bricks, she thought, and so old and crumbling. Their fine red dust was
everywhere, dancing down the gutters at each gust of wind. Small wonder so many Astapori women
veiled their faces; the brick dust stung the eyes worse than sand.
"Make way!" Jhogo shouted as he rode before her litter. "Make way for the Mother of Dragons!" But
when he uncoiled the great silverhandled whip that Dany had given him, and made to crack it in the air,
she leaned out and told him nay. "Not in this place, blood of my blood," she said, in his own tongue.
"These bricks have heard too much of the sound of whips."
The streets had been largely deserted when they had set out from the port that morning, and scarcely
seemed more crowded now. An elephant lumbered past with a latticework litter on its back. A naked
boy with peeling skin sat in a dry brick gutter, picking his nose and staring sullenly at some ants in the
street. He lifted his head at the sound of hooves, and gaped as a column of mounted guards trotted by in
a cloud of red dust and brittle laughter. The copper disks sewn to their cloaks of yellow silk glittered like
so many suns, but their tunics were embroidered linen, and below the waist they wore sandals and
pleated linen skirts. Bareheaded, each man had teased and oiled and twisted his stiff red-black hair into
some fantastic shape, horns and wings and blades and even grasping hands, so they looked like some
troupe of demons escaped from the seventh hell. The naked boy watched them for a bit, along with
Dany, but soon enough they were gone, and he went back to his ants, and a knuckle up his nose.
An old city, this, she reflected, but not so populous as it was in its glory, nor near so crowded as Qarth
or Pentos or Lys.
Her litter came to a sudden halt at the cross street, to allow a coffle of slaves to shuffle across her path,
urged along by the crack of an overseer's lash. These were no Unsullied, Dany noted, but a more
common sort of men, with pale brown skins and black hair. There were women
among them, but no children. All were naked. Two Astapori rode behind them on white asses, a man in
a red silk tokar and a veiled woman in sheer blue linen decorated with flakes of lapis lazuli. In her
red-black hair she wore an ivory comb. The man laughed as he whispered to her, paying no more mind
to Dany than to his slaves, nor the overseer with his twisted five-thonged lash, a squat broad Dothraki
who had the harpy and chains tattooed proudly across his muscular chest.
"Bricks and blood built Astapor," Whitebeard murmured at her side, "and bricks and blood her people."
"What is that?" Dany asked him, curious.


"An old rhyme a maester taught me, when I was a boy. I never knew how true it was. The bricks of
Astapor are red with the blood of the slaves who make them."
"I can well believe that," said Dany.
"Then leave this place before your heart turns to brick as well. Sail this very night, on the evening tide."
Would that I could, thought Dany. "When I leave Astapor it must be with an army, Ser Jorah says."
"Ser Jorah was a slaver himself, Your Grace," the old man reminded her. "There are sellswords in
Pentos and Myr and Tyrosh you can hire. A man who kills for coin has no honor, but at least they are no
slaves. Find your army there, I beg you."
"My brother visited Pentos, Myr, Braavos, near all the Free Cities. The magisters and archons fed him
wine and promises, but his soul was starved to death. A man cannot sup from the beggar's bowl all his
life and stay a man. I had my taste in Qarth, that was enough. I will not come to Pentos bowl in hand."
"Better to come a beggar than a slaver," Arstan said.
"There speaks one who has been neither." Dany's nostrils flared. "Do you know what it is like to be sold,
squire? I do. My brother sold me to Khal Drogo for the promise of a golden crown. Well, Drogo
crowned him in gold, though not as he had wished, and I ... my sun-and-stars made a queen of me, but if
he had been a different man, it might have been much otherwise. Do you think I have forgotten how it felt
to be afraid?"
Whitebeard bowed his head. "Your Grace, I did not mean to give offense."
"Only lies offend me, never honest counsel." Dany patted Arstan's spotted hand to reassure him. "I have
a dragon's temper, that's all. You must not let it frighten you."
"I shall try and remember." Whitebeard smiled.
He has a good face, and great strength to him, Dany thought. She could not understand why Ser Jorah
mistrusted the old man so. Could he be jealous that I have found another man to talk to? Unbidden, her
thoughts went back to the night on Balerion when the exile knight had kissed her. He should never have
done that. He is thrice my age, and of too low a birth for me, and I never gave him leave. No true knight
would ever kiss a queen without her leave. She had taken care never to be alone with Ser Jorah after
that, keeping her handmaids with her aboard ship, and sometimes her bloodriders. He wants to kiss me
again, I see it in his eyes.
What Dany wanted she could not begin to say, but Jorah's kiss had woken something in her, something
that been sleeping since Khal Drogo died. Lying abed in her narrow bunk, she found herself wondering
how it would be to have a man squeezed in beside her in place of her handmaid, and the thought was
more exciting than it should have been. Sometimes she would close her eyes and dream of him, but it was
never Jorah Mormont she dreamed of; her lover was always younger and more comely, though his face
remained a shifting shadow.
Once, so tormented she could not sleep, Dany slid a hand down between her legs, and gasped when she
felt how wet she was. Scarce daring to breathe, she moved her fingers back and forth between her lower


lips, slowly so as not to wake Irri beside her, until she found one sweet spot and lingered there, touching
herself lightly, timidly at first and then faster. Still, the relief she wanted seemed to recede before her, until
her dragons stirred, and one screamed out across the cabin, and Irri woke and saw what she was doing.
Dany knew her face was flushed, but in the darkness Irri surely could not tell. Wordless, the handmaid
put a hand on her breast, then bent to take a nipple in her mouth. Her other hand drifted down across the
soft curve of belly, through the mound of fine silvery-gold hair, and went to work between Dany's thighs.
It was no more than a few moments until her legs twisted and her breasts heaved and her whole body
shuddered. She screamed then. Or perhaps that was Drogon. Irri never said a thing, only curled back up
and went back to sleep the instant the thing was done.
The next day, it all seemed a dream. And what did Ser Jorah have to do with it, if anything? It is Drogo I
want, my sun-and-stars, Dany reminded herself. Not Irri, and not Ser forah, only Drogo. Drogo was
dead, though. She'd thought these feelings had died with him there in the red waste, but one treacherous
kiss had somehow brought them back to life. He should never have kissed me. He presumed too much,
and I permitted it. It must never happen again. She set her mouth grimly and gave her head a shake, and
the bell in her braid chimed softly.
Closer to the bay, the city presented a fairer face. The great brick pyramids lined the shore, the largest
four hundred feet high. All manner of trees and vines and flowers grew on their broad terraces, and the
winds
that swirled around them smelled green and fragrant. Another gigantic harpy stood atop the gate, this
one made of baked red clay and crumbling visibly, with no more than a stub of her scorpion's tail
remaining. The chain she grasped in her clay claws was old iron, rotten with rust. It was cooler down by
the water, though. The lapping of the waves against the rotting pilings made a curiously soothing sound.
Aggo helped Dany down from her litter. Strong Belwas was seated on a massive piling, eating a great
haunch of brown roasted meat. "Dog," he said happily when he saw Dany. "Good dog in Astapor, little
queen. Eat?" He offered it with a greasy grin.
"That is kind of you, Belwas, but no." Dany had eaten dog in other places, at other times, but just now
all she could think of was the Unsullied and their stupid puppies. She swept past the huge eunuch and up
the plank onto the deck of Balerion.
Ser Jorah Mormont stood waiting for her. "Your Grace," he said, bowing his head. "The slavers have
come and gone. Three of them, with a dozen scribes and as many slaves to lift and fetch. They crawled
over every foot of our holds and made note of all we had." He walked her aft. "How many men do they
have for sale?"
"None." Was it Mormont she was angry with, or this city with its sullen heat, its stinks and sweats and
crumbling bricks? "They sell eunuchs, not men. Eunuchs made of brick, like the rest of Astapor. Shall I
buy eight thousand brick eunuchs with dead eyes that never move, who kill suckling babes for the sake of
a spiked hat and strangle their own dogs? They don't even have names. So don't call them men, ser."
"Khaleesi," he said, taken aback by her fury, "the Unsullied are chosen as boys, and trained - "
"I have heard all I care to of their training." Dany could feel tears welling in her eyes, sudden and
unwanted. Her hand flashed up and cracked Ser Jorah hard across the face. It was either that, or cry.
Mormont touched the cheek she'd slapped. "If I have displeased my queen - "


"You have. You've displeased me greatly, ser. If you were my true knight, you would never have
brought me to this vile sty." If you were my true knight, you would never have kissed me, or looked at
my breasts the way you did, or ...
"As Your Grace commands. I shall tell Captain Groleo to make ready to sail on the evening tide, for
some sty less vile."
"No," said Dany. Groleo watched them from the forecastle, and his crew was watching too.
Whitebeard, her bloodriders, ihiqui, every one had stopped what they were doing at the sound of the
slap. "I want to sail now, not on the tide, I want to sail far and fast and never look back. But I can't, can
I? There are eight thousand brick eunuchs for sale, and
I must find some way to buy them." And with that she left him, and went below.
Behind the carved wooden door of the captain's cabin, her dragons were restless. Drogon raised his
head and screamed, pale smoke venting from his nostrils, and Viserion flapped at her and tried to perch
on her shoulder, as he had when he was smaller. "No," Dany said, trying to shrug him off gently. "You're
too big for that now, sweetling." But the dragon coiled his white and gold tail around one arm and dug
black claws into the fabric of her sleeve, clinging tightly. Helpless, she sank into Groleo's great leather
chair, giggling.
"They have been wild while you were gone, Khaleesi," Irri told her. "Viserion clawed splinters from the
door, do you see? And Drogon made to escape when the slaver men came to see them. When I grabbed
his tail to hold him back, he turned and bit me." She showed Dany the marks of his teeth on her hand.
"Did any of them try to burn their way free?" That was the thing that frightened Dany the most.
"No, Khaleesi. Drogon breathed his fire, but in the empty air. The slaver men feared to come near him."
She kissed Irri's hand where Drogon had bitten it. "I'm sorry he hurt you. Dragons are not meant to be
locked up in a small ship's cabin."
"Dragons are like horses in this," Irri said. "And riders, too. The horses scream below, Khaleesi, and
kick at the wooden walls. I hear them. And Jhiqui says the old women and the little ones scream too,
when you are not here. They do not like this water cart. They do not like the black salt sea."
"I know," Dany said. "I do, I know."
"My khaleesi is sad?"
"Yes," Dany admitted. Sad and lost.
"Should I pleasure the khaleesi?"
Dany stepped away from her. "No. Irri, you do not need to do that. What happened that night, when
you woke ... you're no bed slave, I freed you, remember? You..."
"I am handmaid to the Mother of Dragons," the girl said. "It is great honor to please my khaleesi."
"I don't want that," she insisted. "I don't." She turned away sharply. "Leave me now. I want to be alone.


To think."
Dusk had begun to settle over the waters of Slaver's Bay before Dany returned to the deck. She stood
by the rail and looked out over Astapor. From here it looks almost beautiful, she thought. The stars were
coming out above, and the silk lanterns below, just as Kraznys's translator had promised. The brick
pyramids were all glimmery with light. But it is dark below, in the streets and plazas and fighting pits. And
it is darkest
of all in the barracks, where some little boy is feeding scraps to the puppy they gave him when they took
away his manhood.
There was a soft step behind her. "Khaleesi." His voice. "Might I speak frankly? "
Dany did not turn. She could not bear to look at him just now. If she did, she might well slap him again.
Or cry. Or kiss him. And never know which was right and which was wrong and which was madness.
"Say what you will, ser."
"When Aegon the Dragon stepped ashore in Westeros, the kings of Vale and Rock and Reach did not
rush to hand him their crowns. If you mean to sit his Iron Throne, you must win it as he did, with steel and
dragonfire. And that will mean blood on your hands before the thing is done."
Blood and fire, thought Dany. The words of House Targaryen. She had known them all her life. "The
blood of my enemies I will shed gladly. The blood of innocents is another matter. Eight thousand
Unsullied they would offer me. Eight thousand dead babes. Eight thousand strangled dogs."
"Your Grace," said Jorah Mormont, "I saw King's Landing after the Sack. Babes were butchered that
day as well, and old men, and children at play. More women were raped than you can count. There is a
savage beast in every man, and when you hand that man a sword or spear and send him forth to war, the
beast stirs. The scent of blood is all it takes to wake him. Yet I have never heard of these Unsullied
raping, nor putting a city to the sword, nor even plundering, save at the express command of those who
lead them. Brick they may be, as you say, but if you buy them henceforth the only dogs they'll kill are
those you want dead. And you do have some dogs you want dead, as I recall."
The Usurper's dogs. "Yes." Dany gazed off at the soft colored lights and let the cool salt breeze caress
her. "You speak of sacking cities. Answer me this, ser - why have the Dothraki never sacked this city?"
She pointed. "Look at the walls. You can see where they've begun to crumble. There, and there. Do you
see any guards on those towers? I don't. Are they hiding, ser? I saw these sons of the harpy today, all
their proud highbom warriors. They dressed in linen skirts, and the fiercest thing about them was their
hair. Even a modest khalasar could crack this Astapor like a nut and spill out the rotted meat inside. So
tell me, why is that ugly harpy not sitting beside the godsway in Vaes Dothrak among the other stolen
gods?"
"You have a dragon's eye, Khaleesi, that's plain to see."
"I wanted an answer, not a compliment."
"There are two reasons. Astapor's brave defenders are so much chaff, it's true. Old names and fat
purses who dress up as Ghiscari scourges to
pretend they still rule a vast empire. Every one is a high officer. On feastdays they fight mock wars in the
pits to demonstrate what brilliant commanders they are, but it's the eunuchs who do the dying. All the


same, any enemy wanting to sack Astapor would have to know that they'd be facing Unsullied. The
slavers would turn out the whole garrison in the city's defense. The Dothraki have not ridden against
Unsullied since they left their braids at the gates of Qohor."
"And the second reason?" Dany asked.
"Who would attack Astapor?" Ser Jorah asked. "Meereen and Yunkai are rivals but not enemies, the
Doom destroyed Valyria, the folk of the eastern hinterlands are all Ghiscari, and beyond the hills lies
Lhazar. The Lamb Men, as your Dothraki call them, a notably unwarlike people."
"Yes," she agreed, "but north of the slave cities is the Dothraki sea, and two dozen mighty khals who like
nothing more than sacking cities and carrying off their people into slavery."
"Carrying them off where? What good are slaves once you've killed the slavers? Valyria is no more,
Qarth lies beyond the red waste, and the Nine Free Cities are thousands of leagues to the west. And you
may be sure the sons of the harpy give lavishly to every passing khal, just as the magisters do in Pentos
and Norvos and Myr. They know that if they feast the horselords and give them gifts, they will soon ride
on. It's cheaper than fighting, and a deal more certain."
Cheaper than fighting, Dany thought. Yes, it might be. If only it could be that easy for her. How pleasant
it would be to sail to King's Landing with her dragons, and pay the boy Joffrey a chest of gold to make
him go away.
"Khaleesi?" Ser Jorah prompted, when she had been silent for a long time. He touched her elbow lightly.
Dany shrugged him off . "Viserys would have bought as many Unsullied as he had the coin for. But you
once said I was like Rhaegar . . .
"I remember, Daenerys."
"Your Grace," she corrected. "Prince Rhaegar led free men into battle, not slaves. Whitebeard said he
dubbed his squires himself, and made many other knights as well."
"There was no higher honor than to receive your knighthood from the Prince of Dragonstone."
"Tell me, then - when he touched a man on the shoulder with his sword, what did he say? 'Go forth and
kill the weak'? Or 'Go forth and defend them'? At the Trident, those brave men Viserys spoke of who
died beneath our dragon banners - did they give their lives because they believed in Rhaegar's cause, or
because they had been bought and paid for?" Dany turned to Mormont, crossed her arms, and waited
for an answer.
"My queen," the big man said slowly, "all you say is true. But Rhaegar lost on the Trident. He lost the
battle, he lost the war, he lost the kingdom, and he lost his life. His blood swirled downriver with the
rubies from his breastplate, and Robert the Usurper rode over his corpse to steal the iron Throne.
Rhaegar fought valiantly, Rhaegar fought nobly, Rhaegar fought honorably. And Rhaegar died."
Chapter 24
BRAN


No roads ran through the twisted mountain valleys where they walked now. Between the grey stone
peaks lay still blue lakes, long and deep and narrow, and the green gloom of endless piney woods. The
russet and gold of autumn leaves grew less common when they left the wolfswood to climb amongst the
old flint hills, and vanished by the time those hills had turned to mountains. Giant grey-green sentinels
loomed above them now, and spruce and fir and soldier pines in endless profusion. The undergrowth was
sparse beneath them, the forest floor carpeted in dark green needles.
When they lost their way, as happened once or twice, they need only wait for a clear cold night when
the clouds did not intrude, and look up in the sky for the Ice Dragon. The blue star in the dragon's eye
pointed the way north, as Osha told him once. Thinking of Osha made Bran wonder where she was. He
pictured her safe in White Harbor with Rickon and Shaggydog, eating eels and fish and hot crab pie with
fat Lord Manderly. Or maybe they were warming themselves at the Last Hearth before the Greatjon's
fires. But Bran's life had turned into endless chilly days on Hodor's back, riding his basket up and down
the slopes of mountains.
"Up and down," Meera would sigh sometimes as they walked, "then down and up. Then up and down
again. I hate these stupid mountains of yours, Prince Bran."
"Yesterday you said you loved them."
"Oh, I do. My lord father told me about mountains, but I never saw one till now. I love them more than I
can say."
Bran made a face at her. "But you just said you hated them."
"Why can't it be both?" Meera reached up to pinch his nose.
"Because they're different," he insisted. "Like night and day, or ice and fire."
"If ice can burn," said Jojen in his solemn voice, "then love and hate can mate. Mountain or marsh, it
makes no matter. The land is one."
"One," his sister agreed, "but over wrinkled."
The high glens seldom did them the courtesy of running north and south, so often they found themselves
going long leagues in the wrong direction, and sometimes they were forced to double back the way
they'd come. "If we took the kingsroad we could be at the Wall by now," Bran would remind the Reeds.
He wanted to find the three-eyed crow, so he could learn to fly. Half a hundred times he said it if he said
it once, until Meera started teasing by saying it along with him.
"If we took the kingsroad we wouldn't be so hungry either," he started saying then. Down in the hills
they'd had no lack of food. Meera was a fine huntress, and even better at taking fish from streams with
her three-pronged frog spear. Bran liked to watch her, admiring her quickness, the way she sent the
spear lancing down and pulled it back with a silvery trout wriggling on the end of it. And they had
Summer hunting for them as well. The direwolf vanished most every night as the sun went down, but he
was always back again before dawn, most often with something in his jaws, a squirrel or a hare.
But here in the mountains, the streams were smaller and more icy, and the game scarcer. Meera still


hunted and fished when she could, but it was harder, and some nights even Summer found no prey. Often
they went to sleep with empty bellies.
But Jojen remained stubbornly determined to stay well away from roads. "Where you find roads you
find travelers," he said in that way he had, "and travelers have eyes to see, and mouths to spread tales of
the crippled boy, his giant, and the wolf that walks beside them." No one could get as stubborn as Jojen,
so they struggled on through the wild, and every day climbed a little higher, and moved a little farther
north.
Some days it rained, some days were windy, and once they were caught in a sleet storm so fierce that
even Hodor bellowed in dismay. On the clear days, it often seemed as if they were the only living things
in all the world. "Does no one live up here?" Meera Reed asked once, as they made their way around a
granite upthrust as large as Winterfell.
"There's people," Bran told her. "The Umbers are mostly east of the kingsroad, but they graze their
sheep in the high meadows in summer. There are Wulls west of the mountains along the Bay of Ice,
Harclays back behind us in the hills, and Knotts and Liddles and Norreys and even some Flints up here
in the high places." His father's mother's mother had been a Flint of the mountains. Old Nan once said
that it was her
blood in him that made Bran such a fool for climbing before his fall. She had died years and years and
years before he was bom, though, even before his father had been born.
"Wull?" said Meera. "Jojen, wasn't there a Wull who rode with Father during the war?"
"Theo Wull." Joien was breathing hard from the climb. "Buckets, they used to call him."
"That's their sigil," said Bran. "Three brown buckets on a blue field, with a border of white and grey
checks. Lord Wull came to Winterfell once, to do his fealty and talk with Father, and he had the buckets
on his shield. He's no true lord, though. Well, he is, but they call him just the Wull, and there's the Knott
and the Norrey and the Liddle too. At Winterfell we called them lords, but their own folk don't."
Jojen Reed stopped to catch his breath. "Do you think these mountain folk know we're here?"
"They know." Bran had seen them watching; not with his own eyes, but with Summer's sharper ones,
that missed so little. "They won't bother us so long as we don't try and make off with their goats or
horses."
Nor did they. Only once did they encounter any of the mountain people, when a sudden burst of freezing
rain sent them looking for shelter. Summer found it for them, sniffing out a shallow cave behind the
greygreen branches of a towering sentinel tree, but when Hodor ducked beneath the stony overhang,
Bran saw the orange glow of fire farther back and realized they were not alone. "Come in and warm
yourselves," a man's voice called out. "There's stone enough to keep the rain off all our heads."
He offered them oatcakes and blood sausage and a swallow of ale from a skin he carried, but never his
name; nor did he ask theirs. Bran figured him for a Liddle. The clasp that fastened his squirrelskin cloak
was gold and bronze and wrought in the shape of a pinecone, and the Liddles bore pinecones on the
white half of their green-and-white shields.
"Is it far to the Wall?" Bran asked him as they waited for the rain to stop.


"Not so far as the raven flies," said the Liddle, if that was who he was. "Farther, for them as lacks
wings."
Bran started, "I'd bet we'd be there if. . .
". . . we took the kingsroad, " Meera. finished with him.
The Liddle took out a knife and whittled at a stick. "When there was a Stark in Winterfell, a maiden girl
could walk the kingsroad in her name-day gown and still go unmolested, and travelers could find fire,
bread, and salt at many an inn and holdfast. But the nights are colder now, and doors are closed. There's
squids in the wolfswood, and flayed men ride the kingsroad asking after strangers."
The Reeds exchanged a look. "Flayed men?" said Jojen.
"The Bastard's boys, aye. He was dead, but now he's not. And paying good silver for wolfskins, a man
hears, and maybe gold for word of certain other walking dead." He looked at Bran when he said that,
and at Summer stretched out beside him. "As to that Wall," the man went on, "it's not a place that I'd be
going. The Old Bear took the Watch into the haunted woods, and all that come back was his ravens,
with hardly a message between them. Dark wings, dark words, me mother used to say, but when the
birds fly silent, seems to me that's even darker." He poked at the fire with his stick. "It was different when
there was a Stark in Winterfell. But the old wolf's dead and young one's gone south to play the game of
thrones, and all that's left us is the ghosts."
"The wolves will come again," said Jojen solemnly.
"And how would you be knowing, boy?"
"I dreamed it."
"Some nights I dream of me mother that I buried nine years past," the man said, "but when I wake, she's
not come back to us."
"There are dreams and dreams, my lord."
"Hodor," said Hodor.
They spent that night together, for the rain did not let up till well past dark, and only Summer seemed to
want to leave the cave. When the fire had burned down to embers, Bran let him go. The direwolf did not
feel the damp as people did, and the night was calling him. Moonlight painted the wet woods in shades of
silver and turned the grey peaks white. Owls hooted through the dark and flew silently between the pines,
while pale goats moved along the mountainsides. Bran closed his eyes and gave himself up to the wolf
dream, to the smells and sounds of midnight.
When they woke the next morning, the fire had gone out and the Liddle was gone, but he'd left a
sausage for them, and a dozen oatcakes folded up neatly in a green and white cloth. Some of the cakes
had pinenuts baked in them and some had blackberries. Bran ate one of each, and still did not know
which sort he liked the best. One day there would be Starks in Winterfell again, he told himself, and then
he'd send for the Liddles and pay them back a hundredfold for every nut and berry.
The trail they followed was a little easier that day, and by noon the sun came breaking through the
clouds. Bran sat in his basket up on Hodor's back and felt almost content. He dozed off once, lulled to


sleep by the smooth swing of the big stableboy's stride and the soft humming sound he made sometimes
when he walked. Meera woke him up with a light touch on his arm. "Look," she said, pointing at the sky
with her frog spear, "an eagle."
Bran lifted his head and saw it, its grey wings spread and still as it floated on the wind. He followed it
with his eyes as it circled higher,
wondering what it would be like to soar about the world so effortless. Better than climbing, even. He
tried to reach the eagle, to leave his stupid crippled body and rise into the sky to join it, the way he joined
with Summer. The greenseers could do it. I should be able to do it too. He tried and tried, until the eagle
vanished in the golden haze of the afternoon. "It's gone," he said, disappointed.
"We'll see others," said Meera. "They live up here."
"I suppose."
"Hodor," said Hodor.
"Hodor," Bran agreed.
Jojen kicked a pinecone. "Hodor likes it when you say his name, I think."
"Hodor's not his true name," Bran explained. "It's just some word he says. His real name is Walder, Old
Nan told me. She was his grandmother's grandmother or something." Talking about Old Nan made him
sad. "Do you think the ironmen killed her?" They hadn't seen her body at Winterfell. He didn't remember
seeing any women dead, now that he thought back. "She never hurt no one, not even Theon. She just
told stories. Theon wouldn't hurt someone like that. Would he?"
"Some people hurt others just because they can," said Jojen.
"And it wasn't Theon who did the killing at Winterfell," said Meera. "Too many of the dead were
ironmen." She shifted her frog spear to her other hand. "Remember Old Nan's stories, Bran. Remember
the way she told them, the sound of her voice. So long as you do that, part of her will always be alive in
you."
"I'll remember," he promised. They climbed without speaking for a long time, following a crooked game
trail over the high saddle between two stony peaks. Scrawny soldier pines clung to the slopes around
them. Far ahead Bran could see the icy glitter of a stream where it tumbled down a mountainside. He
found himself listening to Jojen's breathing and the crunch of pine needles under Hodor's feet. "Do you
know any stories?" he asked the Reeds all of a sudden.
Meera laughed. "Oh, a few."
"A few," her brother admitted.
"Hodor," said Hodor, humming.
"You could tell one," said Bran. "While we walked. Hodor likes stories about knights. I do, too."
"There are no knights in the Neck," said Jojen.


"Above the water," his sister corrected. "The bogs are full of dead ones, though."
"That's true," said Jojen. "Andals and ironmen, Freys and other fools, all those proud warriors who set
out to conquer Greywater. Not one of them could find it. They ride into the Neck, but not back out. And
sooner
or later they blunder into the bogs and sink beneath the weight of all that steel and drown there in their
armor."
The thought of drowned knights under the water gave Bran the shivers. He didn't object, though; he
liked the shivers.
"There was one knight," said Meera, "in the year of the false spring. The Knight of the Laughing Tree,
they called him. He might have been a crannogman, that one."
"Or not." Jojen's face was dappled with green shadows. "Prince Bran has heard that tale a hundred
times, I'm sure."
"No," said Bran. "I haven't. And if I have it doesn't matter. Sometimes Old Nan would tell the same
story she'd told before, but we never minded, if it was a good story. Old stories are like old friends, she
used to say. You have to visit them from time to time."
"That's true." Meera walked with her shield on her back, pushing an occasional branch out of the way
with her frog spear. just when Bran began to think that she wasn't going to tell the story after all, she
began, "Once there was a curious lad who lived in the Neck. He was small like all crannogmen, but
brave and smart and strong as well. He grew up hunting and fishing and climbing trees, and learned all the
magics of my people."
Bran was almost certain he had never heard this story. "Did he have green dreams like Jojen?"
"No," said Meera, "but he could breathe mud and run on leaves, and change earth to water and water to
earth with no more than a whispered word. He could talk to trees and weave words and make castles
appear and disappear."
"I wish I could," Bran said plaintively. "When does he meet the tree knight?"
Meera made a face at him. "Sooner if a certain prince would be quiet."
"I was just asking."
"The lad knew the magics of the crannogs," she continued, "but he wanted more. Our people seldom
travel far from home, you know. We're a small folk, and our ways seem queer to some, so the big
people do not always treat us kindly. But this lad was bolder than most, and one day when he had grown
to manhood he decided he would leave the crannogs and visit the Isle of Faces."
"No one visits the Isle of Faces," objected Bran. "That's where the green men live."
"It was the green men he meant to find. So he donned a shirt sewn with bronze scales, like mine, took up
a leathern shield and a threepronged spear, like mine, and paddled a little skin boat down the Green
Fork."


Bran closed his eyes to try and see the man in his little skin boat. In
his head, the crannogman looked like Jojen, only older and stronger and dressed like Meera.
"He passed beneath the Twins by night so the Freys would not attack him, and when he reached the
Trident he climbed from the river and put his boat on his head and began to walk. It took him many a
day, but finally he reached the Gods Eye, threw his boat in the lake, and paddled out to the isle of
Faces."
"Did he meet the green men?"
"Yes," said Meera, "but that's another story, and not for me to tell. My prince asked for knights."
"Green men are good too."
"They are," she agreed, but said no more about them. "All that winter the crannogman stayed on the isle,
but when the spring broke he heard the wide world calling and knew the time had come to leave. His
skin boat was just where he'd left it, so he said his farewells and paddled off toward shore. He rowed
and rowed, and finally saw the distant towers of a castle rising beside the lake. The towers reached ever
higher as he neared shore, until he realized that this must be the greatest castle in all the world."
"Harrenhal!" Bran knew at once. "It was Harrenhal!"
Meera smiled. "Was it? Beneath its walls he saw tents of many colors, bright banners cracking in the
wind, and knights in mail and plate on barded horses. He smelled roasting meats, and heard the sound of
laughter and the blare of heralds' trumpets. A great tourney was about to commence, and champions
from all over the land had come to contest it. The king himself was there, with his son the dragon prince.
The White Swords had come, to welcome a new brother to their ranks. The storm lord was on hand,
and the rose lord as well. The great lion of the rock had quarreled with the king and stayed away, but
many of his bannermen and knights attended all the same. The crannogman had never seen such
pageantry, and knew he might never see the like again. Part of him wanted nothing so much as to be part
of it."
Bran knew that feeling well enough. When he'd been little, all he had ever dreamed of was being a
knight. But that had been before he fell and lost his legs.
"The daughter of the great castle reigned as queen of love and beauty when the tourney opened. Five
champions had sworn to defend her crown; her four brothers of Harrenhal, and her famous uncle, a white
knight of the Kingsguard."
"Was she a fair maid?"
"She was," said Meera, hopping over a stone, "but there were others fairer still. One was the wife of the
dragon prince, who'd brought a dozen lady companions to attend her. The knights all begged them for
favors to tie about their lances."
"This isn't going to be one of those love stories, is it?" Bran asked suspiciously. "Hodor doesn't like those
so much."
"Hodor," said Hodor agreeably.


"He likes the stories where the knights fight monsters."
"Sometimes the knights are the monsters, Bran. The little crannogman was walking across the field,
enjoying the warm spring day and harming none, when he was set upon by three squires. They were none
older than fifteen, yet even so they were bigger than him, all three. This was their world, as they saw it,
and he had no right to be there. They snatched away his spear and knocked him to the ground, cursing
him for a frogeater."
"Were they Walders?" It sounded like something Little Walder Frey might have done.
"None offered a name, but he marked their faces well so he could revenge himself upon them later. They
shoved him down every time he tried to rise, and kicked him when he curled up on the ground. But then
they heard a roar. 'That's my father's man you're kicking/ howled the she-wolf."
"A wolf on four legs, or two?"
"Two," said Meera. "The she-wolf laid into the squires with a tourney sword, scattering them all. The
crannogman was bruised and bloodied, so she took him back to her lair to clean his cuts and bind them
up with linen. There he met her pack brothers: the wild wolf who led them, the quiet wolf beside him, and
the pup who was youngest of the four.
"That evening there was to be a feast in Harrenhal, to mark the opening of the tourney, and the she-wolf
insisted that the lad attend. He was of high birth, with as much a right to a place on the bench as any
other man. She was not easy to refuse, this wolf maid, so he let the young pup find him garb suitable to a
king's feast, and went up to the great castle.
"Under Harren's roof he ate and drank with the wolves, and many of their sworn swords besides,
barrowdown men and moose and bears and mermen. The dragon prince sang a song so sad it made the
wolf maid sniffle, but when her pup brother teased her for crying she poured wine over his head. A black
brother spoke, asking the knights to join the Night's Watch. The storm lord drank down the knight of
skulls and kisses in a wine-cup war. The crannogman saw a maid with laughing purple eyes dance with a
white sword, a red snake, and the lord of griffins, and lastly with the quiet wolf ... but only after the wild
wolf spoke to her on behalf of a brother too shy to leave his bench.
"Amidst all this merriment, the little crannogman spied the three squires who'd attacked him. One served
a pitchfork knight, one a porcupine, while the last attended a knight with two towers on his surcoat, a sigil
all crannogmen know well."
"The Freys," said Bran. "The Freys of the Crossing."
"Then, as now," she agreed. "The wolf maid saw them too, and pointed them out to her brothers. 'I
could find you a horse, and some armor that might fit/ the pup offered. The little crannogman thanked
him, but gave no answer. His heart was torn. Crannogmen are smaller than most, but just as proud. The
lad was no knight, no more than any of his people. We sit a boat more often than a horse, and our hands
are made for oars, not lances. Much as he wished to have his vengeance, he feared he would only make
a fool of himself and shame his people. The quiet wolf had offered the little crannogman a place in his tent
that night, but before he slept he knelt on the lakeshore, looking across the water to where the Isle of
Faces would be, and said a prayer to the old gods of north and Neck..."
"You never heard this tale from your father?" asked Jojen.


"It was Old Nan who told the stories. Meera, go on, you can't stop there. "
Hodor must have felt the same. "Hodor," he said, and then, "Hodor hodor hodor hodor."
"Well," said Meera, "if you would hear the rest..."
"Yes. Tell it."
"Five days of jousting were planned," she said. "There was a great seven-sided melee as well, and
archery and axethrowing, a horse race and tourney of singers. .."
"Never mind about all that." Bran squirmed impatiently in his basket on Hodor's back. "Tell about the
jousting."
"As my prince commands. The daughter of the castle was the queen of love and beauty, with four
brothers and an uncle to defend her, but all four sons of Harrenhal were defeated on the first day. Their
conquerors reigned briefly as champions, until they were vanquished in turn. As it happened, the end of
the first day saw the porcupine knight win a place among the champions, and on the morning of the
second day the pitchfork knight and the knight of the two towers were victorious as well. But late on the
afternoon of that second day, as the shadows grew long, a mystery knight appeared in the lists."
Bran nodded sagely. Mystery knights would oft appear at tourneys, with helms concealing their faces,
and shields that were either blank or bore some strange device. Sometimes they were famous champions
in disguise. The Dragonknight once won a tourney as the Knight of Tears, so he could name his sister the
queen of love and beauty in place of the king's mistress. And Barristan the Bold twice donned a mystery
knight's armor, the first time when he was only ten. "It was the little crannogman, I bet."
"No one knew," said Meera, "but the mystery knight was short of stature, and clad in ill-fitting armor
made up of bits and pieces. The
device upon his shield was a heart tree of the old gods, a white weirwood with a laughing red face."
"Maybe he came from the Isle of Faces," said Bran. "Was he green?" In Old Nan's stories, the guardians
had dark green skin and leaves instead of hair. Sometimes they had antlers too, but Bran didn't see how
the mystery knight could have worn a helm if he had antlers. "I bet the old gods sent him."
"Perhaps they did. The mystery knight dipped his lance before the king and rode to the end of the lists,
where the five champions had their pavilions. You know the three he challenged."
"The porcupine knight, the pitchfork knight, and the knight of the twin towers." Bran had heard enough
stories to know that. "He was the little crannogman, I told you."
"Whoever he was, the old gods gave strength to his arm. The porcupine knight fell first, then the
pitchfork knight, and lastly the knight of the two towers. None were well loved, so the common folk
cheered lustily for the Knight of the Laughing Tree, as the new champion soon was called. When his
fallen foes sought to ransom horse and armor, the Knight of the Laughing Tree spoke in a booming voice
through his helm, saying, 'Teach your squire honor, that shall be ransom enough.' Once the defeated
knights chastised their squires sharply, their horses and armor were returned. And so the little
crannogman's prayer was answered ... by the green men, or the old gods, or the children of the forest,
who can say?"


It was a good story, Bran decided after thinking about it a moment or two. "Then what happened? Did
the Knight of the Laughing Tree win the tourney and marry a princess?"
"No," said Meera. "That night at the great castle, the storm lord and the knight of skulls and kisses each
swore they would unmask him, and the king himself urged men to challenge him, declaring that the face
behind that helm was no friend of his. But the next morning, when the heralds blew their trumpets and the
king took his seat, only two champions appeared. The Knight of the Laughing Tree had vanished. The
king was wroth, and even sent his son the dragon prince to seek the man, but all they ever found was his
painted shield, hanging abandoned in a tree. it was the dragon prince who won that tourney in the end."
"Oh." Bran thought about the tale awhile. "That was a good story. But it should have been the three bad
knights who hurt him, not their squires. Then the little crannogman could have killed them all. The part
about the ransoms was stupid. And the mystery knight should win the tourney, defeating every challenger,
and name the wolf maid the queen of love and beauty."
"She was," said Meera, "but that's a sadder story."
"Are you certain you never heard this tale before, Bran?" asked Jojen. "Your lord father never told it to
you?"
Bran shook his head. The day was growing old by then, and long shadows were creeping down the
mountainsides to send black fingers through the pines. If the little crannogman could visit the Isle of
Faces, maybe I could too. All the tales agreed that the green men had strange magic powers. Maybe
they could help him walk again, even turn him into a knight. They turned the little crannogman into a
knight, even if it was only for a day, he thought. A day would be enough.
Chapter 25
Davos
The cell was warmer than any cell had a right to be.
It was dark, yes. Flickering orange light fell through the ancient iron bars from the torch in the sconce on
the wall outside, but the back half of the cell remained drenched in gloom. It was dank as well, as might
be expected on an isle such as Dragonstone, where the sea was never far. And there were rats, as many
as any dungeon could expect to have and a few more besides.
But Davos could not complain of chill. The smooth stony passages beneath the great mass of
Dragonstone were always warm, and Davos had often heard it said they grew warmer the farther down
one went. He was well below the castle, he judged, and the wall of his cell often felt warm to his touch
when he pressed a palm against it. Perhaps the old tales were true, and Dragonstone was built with the
stones of hell.
He was sick when they first brought him here. The cough that had plagued him since the battle grew
worse, and a fever took hold of him as well. His lips broke with blood blisters, and the warmth of the cell
did not stop his shivering. I will not linger long, he remembered thinking. I will die soon, here in the dark.


Davos soon found that he was wrong about that, as about so much else. Dimly he remembered gentle
hands and a firm voice, and young Maester Pylos looking down on him. He was given hot garlic broth to
drink, and milk of the poppy to take away his aches and shivers. The poppy made him sleep and while
he slept they leeched him to drain off the bad blood. Or so he surmised, by the leech marks on his arms
when he woke. Before very long the coughing stopped, the blisters vanished,
and his broth had chunks of whitefish in it, and carrots and onions as well. And one day he realized that
he felt stronger than he had since Black Betha shattered beneath him and flung him in the river.
He had two gaolers to tend him. One was broad and squat, with thick shoulders and huge strong hands.
He wore a leather brigantine dotted with iron studs, and once a day brought Davos a bowl of oaten
porridge. Sometimes he sweetened it with honey or poured in a bit of milk. The other gaoler was older,
stooped and sallow, with greasy unwashed hair and pebbled skin. He wore a doublet of white velvet with
a ring of stars worked upon the breast in golden thread. It fit him badly, being both too short and too
loose, and was soiled and torn besides. He would bring Davos plates of meat and mash, or fish stew,
and once even half a lamprey pie. The lamprey was so rich he could not keep it down, but even so, it
was a rare treat for a prisoner in a dungeon.
Neither sun nor moon shone in the dungeons; no windows pierced the thick stone walls. The only way to
tell day from night was by his gaolers. Neither man would speak to him, though he knew they were no
mutes; sometimes he heard them exchange a few brusque words as the watch was changing. They would
not even tell him their names, so he gave them names of his own. The short strong one he called Porridge,
the stooped sallow one Lamprey, for the pie. He marked the passage of days by the meals they brought,
and by the changing of the torches in the sconce outside his cell.
A man grows lonely in the dark, and hungers for the sound of a human voice. Davos would talk to the
gaolers whenever they came to his cell, whether to bring him food or change his slops pail. He knew they
would be deaf to pleas for freedom or mercy; instead he asked them questions, hoping perhaps one day
one might answer. "What news of the war?" he asked, and "Is the king well?" He asked after his son
Devan, and the Princess Shireen, and Salladhor Saan. "What is the weather like?" he asked, and "Have
the autumn storms begun yet? Do ships still sail the narrow sea?"
it made no matter what he asked; they never answered, though sometimes Porridge gave him a look,
and for half a heartbeat Davos would think that he was about to speak. With Lamprey there was not
even that much. I am not a man to him, Davos thought, only a stone that eats and shits and speaks. He
decided after a while that he liked Porridge much the better. Porridge at least seemed to know he was
alive, and there was a queer sort of kindness to the man. Davos suspected that he fed the rats; that was
why there were so many. Once he thought he heard the gaoler talking to them as if they were children,
but perhaps he'd only dreamed that.
They do not mean to let me die, he realized. They are keeping me
alive, for some purpose of their own. He did not like to think what that might be. Lord Sunglass had
been confined in the cells beneath Dragonstone for a time, as had Ser Hubard Rambton's sons; all of
them had ended on the pyre. I should have given myself to the sea, Davos thought as he sat staring at the
torch beyond the bars. Or let the sail pass me by, to perish on my rock. I would sooner feed crabs than
flames.
Then one night as he was finishing his supper, Davos felt a queer flush come over him. He glanced up
through the bars, and there she stood in shimmering scarlet with her great ruby at her throat, her red eyes
gleaming as bright as the torch that bathed her. "Melisandre," he said, with a calm he did not feel.


"Onion Knight," she replied, just as calmly, as if the two of them had met on a stair or in the yard, and
were exchanging polite greetings. "Are you well?"
"Better than I was."
"Do you lack for anything?"
"My king. My son. I lack for them." He pushed the bowl aside and stood. "Have you come to bum me?"
Her strange red eyes studied him through the bars. "This is a bad place, is it not? A dark place, and foul.
The good sun does not shine here, nor the bright moon." She lifted a hand toward the torch in the wall
sconce. "This is all that stands between you and the darkness, Onion Knight. This little fire, this gift of
R'hllor. Shall I put it out?"
"No." He moved toward the bars. "Please." He did not think he could bear that, to be left alone in utter
blackness with no one but the rats for company.
The red woman's lips curved upward in a smile. "So you have come to love the fire, it would seem."
"I need the torch." His hands opened and closed. I will not beg her. I will not.
"I am like this torch, Ser Davos. We are both instruments of R'hllor. We were made for a single purpose
- to keep the darkness at bay. Do you believe that?"
"No." Perhaps he should have lied, and told her what she wanted to hear, but Davos was too
accustomed to speaking truth. "You are the mother of darkness. I saw that under Storm's End, when you
gave birth before my eyes."
"Is the brave Ser Onions so frightened of a passing shadow? Take heart, then. Shadows only live when
given birth by light, and the king's fires bum so low I dare not draw off any more to make another son. It
might well kill him." Melisandre moved closer. "With another man, though ... a man whose flames still
bum hot and high ... if you truly wish to serve your king's cause, come to my chamber one night. I could
give you
pleasure such as you have never known, and with your life-fire I could make..."
". . . a horror." Davos retreated from her. "I want no part of you, my lady. Or your god. May the Seven
protect me."
Melisandre sighed. "They did not protect Guncer Sunglass. He prayed thrice each day, and bore seven
seven-pointed stars upon his shield, but when R'hllor reached out his hand his prayers turned to screams,
and he burned. Why cling to these false gods?"
"I have worshiped them all my life."
"All your life, Davos Seaworth? As well say it was so yesterday." She shook her head sadly. "You have
never feared to speak the truth to kings, why do you lie to yourself? Open your eyes, ser knight."
"What is it you would have me see?"


"The way the world is made. The truth is all around you, plain to behold. The night is dark and full of
terrors, the day bright and beautiful and full of hope. One is black, the other white. There is ice and there
is fire. Hate and love. Bitter and sweet. Male and female. Pain and pleasure. Winter and summer. Evil
and good." She took a step toward him. "Death and life. Everywhere, opposites. Everywhere, the war."
"The war?" asked Davos.
"The war," she affirmed. "There are two, Onion Knight. Not seven, not one, not a hundred or a
thousand. Two! Do you think I crossed half the world to put yet another vain king on yet another empty
throne? The war has been waged since time began, and before it is done, all men must choose where
they will stand. On one side is R'hllor, the Lord of Light, the Heart of Fire, the God of Flame and
Shadow. Against him stands the Great Other whose name may not be spoken, the Lord of Darkness, the
Soul of Ice, the God of Night and Terror. Ours is not a choice between Baratheon and Lannister,
between Greyjoy and Stark. It is death we choose, or life. Darkness, or light." She clasped the bars of
his cell with her slender white hands. The great ruby at her throat seemed to pulse with its own radiance.
"So tell me, Ser Davos Seaworth, and tell me truly - does your heart burn with the shining light of R'hllor?
Or is it black and cold and full of worms?" She reached through the bars and laid three fingers upon his
breast, as if to feel the truth of him through flesh and wool and leather.
"My heart," Davos said slowly, "is full of doubts."
Melisandre sighed. "Ahhhh, Davos. The good knight is honest to the last, even in his day of darkness. It
is well you did not lie to me. I would have known. The Other's servants oft hide black hearts in gaudy
light, so R'hllor gives his priests the power to see through falsehoods." She stepped lightly away from the
cell. "Why did you mean to kill me?"
"I will tell you," said Davos, "if you will tell me who betrayed me."
it could only have been Salladhor Saan, and yet even now he prayed it was not so.
The red woman laughed. "No one betrayed you, onion knight. I saw your purpose in my flames."
The flames. "If you can see the future in these flames, how is it that we burned upon the Blackwater?
You gave my sons to the fire ... my sons, my ship, my men, all burning..."
Melisandre shook her head. "You wrong me, onion knight. Those were no fires of mine. Had I been
with you, your battle would have had a different ending. But His Grace was surrounded by unbelievers,
and his pride proved stronger than his faith. His punishment was grievous, but he has learned from his
mistake."
Were my sons no more than a lesson for a king, then? Davos felt his mouth tighten.
"It is night in your Seven Kingdoms now," the red woman went on, "but soon the sun will rise again. The
war continues, Davos Seaworth, and some will soon learn that even an ember in the ashes can still ignite
a great blaze. The old maester looked at Stannis and saw only a man. You see a king. You are both
wrong. He is the Lord's chosen, the warrior of fire. I have seen him leading the fight against the dark, I
have seen it in the flames. The flames do not lie, else you would not be here. It is written in prophecy as
well. When the red star bleeds and the darkness gathers, Azor Ahai shall be born again amidst smoke
and salt to wake dragons out of stone. The bleeding star has come and gone, and Dragonstone is the
place of smoke and salt. Stannis Baratheon is Azor Ahai reborn!" Her red eyes blazed like twin fires, and
seemed to stare deep into his soul. "You do not believe me. You doubt the truth of R'hllor even now ...


yet have served him all the same, and will serve him again. I shall leave you here to think on all that I have
told you. And because R'hllor is the source of all good, I shall leave the torch as well."
With a smile and swirl of scarlet skirts, she was gone. Only her scent lingered after. That, and the torch.
Davos lowered himself to the floor of the cell and wrapped his arms about his knees. The shifting
torchlight washed over him. Once Melisandre's footsteps faded away, the only sound was the scrabbling
of rats. Ice and fire, he thought. Black and white. Dark and light. Davos could not deny the power of her
god. He had seen the shadow crawling from Melisandre's womb, and the priestess knew things she had
no way of knowing. She saw my purpose in her flames. it was good to learn that Salla had not sold him,
but the thought of the red woman spying out his secrets with her fires disquieted him more than he could
say. And what did she mean when she said that I had served her god and would serve him again? He did
not like that either.
He lifted his eyes to stare up at the torch. He looked for a long time, never blinking, watching the flames
shift and shimmer. He tried to see beyond them, to peer through the fiery curtain and glimpse whatever
lived back there . . . but there was nothing, only fire, and after a time his eyes began to water.
God-blind and tired, Davos curled up on the straw and gave himself to sleep.
Three days later - well, Porridge had come thrice, and Lamprey twice - Davos heard voices outside his
cell. He sat up at once, his back to the stone wall, listening to the sounds of struggle. This was new, a
change in his unchanging world. The noise was coming from the left, where the steps led up to daylight.
He could hear a man's voice, pleading and shouting.
". . madness!" the man was saying as he came into view, dragged along between two guardsmen with
fiery hearts on their breasts. Porridge went before them, jangling a ring of keys, and Ser Axell Florent
walked behind. "Axell," the prisoner said desperately, "for the love you bear me, unhand me! You cannot
do this, I'm no traitor." He was an older man, tall and slender, with silvery grey hair, a pointed beard, and
a long elegant face twisted in fear. "Where is Selyse, where is the queen? I demand to see her. The
Others take you all! Release me!"
The guards paid no mind to his outcries. "Here?" Porridge asked in front of the cell. Davos got to his
feet. For an instant he considered trying to rush them when the door was opened, but that was madness.
There were too many, the guards wore swords, and Porridge was strong as a bull.
Ser Axell gave the gaoler a curt nod. "Let the traitors enjoy each other's company."
"I am no traitor!" screeched the prisoner as Porridge was unlocking the door. Though he was plainly
dressed, in grey wool doublet and black breeches, his speech marked him as highborn. His birth will not
serve him here, thought Davos.
Porridge swung the bars wide, Ser Axell gave a nod, and the guards flung their charge in headlong. The
man stumbled and might have fallen, but Davos caught him. At once he wrenched away and staggered
back toward the door, only to have it slammed in his pale, pampered face. "No," he shouted. "Nooooo. "
All the strength suddenly left his legs, and he slid slowly to the floor, clutching at the iron bars. Ser Axell,
Porridge, and the guards had already turned to leave. "You cannot do this," the prisoner shouted at their
retreating backs. "I am the King's Hand!"
it was then that Davos knew him. "You are Alester Florent."
The man turned his head. "Who ... ?"


"Ser Davos Seaworth."
Lord Alester blinked. "Seaworth ... the onion knight. You tried to murder Melisandre."
Davos did not deny it. "At Storm's End you wore red-gold armor, with inlaid lapis flowers on your
breastplate." He reached down a hand to help the other man to his feet.
Lord Alester brushed the filthy straw from his clothing. "I ... I must apologize for my appearance, ser.
My chests were lost when the Lannisters overran our camp. I escaped with no more than the mail on my
back and the rings on my fingers."
He still wears those rings, noted Davos, who had lacked even all of his fingers.
"No doubt some cook's boy or groom is prancing around King's Landing just now in my slashed velvet
doublet and jeweled cloak," Lord Alester went on, oblivious. "But war has its horrors, as all men know.
No doubt you suffered your own losses."
"My ship," said Davos. "All my men. Four of my sons."
"May the ... may the Lord of Light lead them through the darkness to a better world," the other man
said.
May the Father judge them justly, and the Mother grant them mercy, Davos thought, but he kept his
prayer to himself. The Seven had no place on Dragonstone now.
"My own son is safe at Brightwater," the lord went on, "but I lost a nephew on the Fury. Ser Imry, my
brother Ryam's son."
It had been Ser Imry Florent who led them blindly up the Blackwater Rush with all oars pulling, paying
no heed to the small stone towers at the mouth of the river. Davos was not like to forget him. "My son
Maric was your nephew's oarmaster." He remembered his last sight of Fury, engulfed in wildfire. "Has
there been any word of survivors?"
"The Fury burned and sank with all hands," his lordship said. "Your son and my nephew were lost, with
countless other good men. The war itself was lost that day, ser."
This man is defeated. Davos remembered Melisandre's talk of embers in the ashes igniting great blazes.
Small wonder he ended here. "His Grace will never yield, my lord."
"Folly, that's folly." Lord Alester sat on the floor again, as if the effort of standing for a moment had been
too much for him. "Stannis Baratheon will never sit the Iron Throne. Is it treason to say the truth? A bitter
truth, but no less true for that. His fleet is gone, save for the Lyseni, and Salladhor Saan will flee at the
first sight of a Lannister sail. Most of the lords who supported Stannis have gone over to Joffrey or died.
. ."
"Even the lords of the narrow sea? The lords sworn to Dragonstone?"
Lord Alester waved his hand feebly. "Lord Celtigar was captured and bent the knee. Monford Velaryon
died with his ship, the red woman


burned Sunglass, and Lord Bar Emmon is fifteen, fat, and feeble. Those are your lords of the narrow
sea. Only the strength of House Florent is left to Stannis, against all the might of Highgarden, Sunspear,
and Casterly Rock, and now most of the storm lords as well. The best hope that remains is to try and
salvage something with a peace. That is all I meant to do. Gods be good, how can they call it treason?"
Davos stood frowning. "My lord, what did you do?"
"Not treason. Never treason. I love His Grace as much as any man. My own niece is his queen, and I
remained loyal to him when wiser men fled. I am his Hand, the Hand of the King, how can I be a traitor?
I only meant to save our lives, and ... honor ... yes." He licked his lips. "I penned a letter. Salladhor Saan
swore that he had a man who could get it to King's Landing, to Lord Tywin. His lordship is a ... a man of
reason, and my terms ... the terms were fair ... more than fair."
"What terms were these, my lord?"
"it is fllthy here," Lord Alester said suddenly. "And that odor ... what is that odor?"
"The pail," said Davos, gesturing. "We have no privy here. What terms?"
His lordship stared at the pail in horror. "That Lord Stannis give up his claim to the Iron Throne and
retract all he said of Joffrey's bastardy, on the condition that he be accepted back into the king's peace
and confirmed as Lord of Dragonstone and Storm's End. I vowed to do the same, for the return of
Brightwater Keep and all our lands. I thought ... Lord Tywin would see the sense in my proposal. He still
has the Starks to deal with, and the ironmen as well. I offered to seal the bargain by wedding Shireen to
Joffrey's brother Tommen." He shook his head. "The terms ... they are as good as we are ever like to
get. Even you can see that, surely? "
"Yes," said Davos, "even me." Unless Stannis should father a son, such a marriage would mean that
Dragonstone and Storm's End would one day pass to Tommen, which would doubtless please Lord
Tywin. Meanwhile, the Lannisters would have Shireen as hostage to make certain Stannis raised no new
rebellions. "And what did His Grace say when you proposed these terms to him?"
"He is always with the red woman, and ... he is not in his right mind, I fear. This talk of a stone dragon ...
madness, I tell you, sheer madness. Did we learn nothing from Aerion Brightfire, from the nine mages,
from the alchemists? Did we learn nothing from Summerhall? No good has ever come from these dreams
of dragons, I told Axell as much. My way was better. Surer. And Stannis gave me his seal, he gave me
leave to rule. The Hand speaks with the king's voice."
"Not in this." Davos was no courtier, and he did not even try to blunt
his words. "It is not in Stannis to yield, so long as he knows his claim is just. No more than he can unsay
his words against Joffrey, when he believes them true. As for the marriage, Tornmen was born of the
same incest as Joffrey, and His Grace would sooner see Shireen dead than wed to such."
A vein throbbed in Florent's forehead. "He has no choice."
"You are wrong, my lord. He can choose to die a king."
"And us with him? Is that what you desire, Onion Knight?"
"No. But I am the king's man, and I will make no peace without his leave."


Lord Alester stared at him helplessly for a long moment, and then began to weep.
Chapter 26
JON
The last night fell black and moonless, but for once the sky was clear. "I am going up the hill to look for
Ghost," he told the Thenns at the cave mouth, and they grunted and let him pass.
So many stars, he thought as he trudged up the slope through pines and firs and ash. Maester Luwin had
taught him his stars as a boy in Winterfell; he had learned the names of the twelve houses of heaven and
the rulers of each; he could find the seven wanderers sacred to the Faith; he was old friends with the Ice
Dragon, the Shadowcat, the Moonmaid, and the Sword of the Morning. All those he shared with Ygritte,
but not some of the others. We look up at the same stars, and see such different things. The King's
Crown was the Cradle, to hear her tell it; the Stallion was the Horned Lord; the red wanderer that
septons preached was sacred to their Smith up here was called the Thief. And when the Thief was in the
Moonmaid, that was a propitious time for a man to steal a woman, Ygritte insisted. "Like the night you
stole me. The Thief was bright that night."
"I never meant to steal you," he said. "I never knew you were a girl until my knife was at your throat."
"If you kill a man, and never mean t', he's just as dead," Ygritte said stubbornly. Jon had never met
anyone so stubborn, except maybe for his little sister Arya. Is she still my sister? he wondered. Was she
ever? He had never truly been a Stark, only Lord Eddard's motherless bastard, with no more place at
Winterfell than Theon Greyjoy. And even that he'd lost. When a man of the Night's Watch said his
words, he put aside his old family and joined a new one, but Jon Snow had lost those brothers too.
He found Ghost atop the hill, as he thought he might. The white wolf never howled, yet something drew
him to the heights all the same, and he would squat there on his hindquarters, hot breath rising in a white
mist as his red eyes drank the stars.
"Do you have names for them as well?" Jon asked, as he went to one knee beside the direwolf and
scratched the thick white fur on his neck, "The Hare? The Doe? The She-Wolf?" Ghost licked his face,
his rough wet tongue rasping against the scabs where the eagle's talons had ripped Jon's cheek. The bird
marked both of us, he thought. "Ghost," he said quietly, "on the morrow we go over. There's no steps
here, no cage-andcrane, no way for me to get you to the other side. We have to part. Do you
understand?"
in the dark, the direwolf's red eyes looked black. He nuzzled at Jon's neck, silent as ever, his breath a
hot mist. The wildlings called Jon Snow a warg, but if so he was a poor one. He did not know how to
put on a wolf skin, the way Orell had with his eagle before he'd died. Once Jon had dreamed that he was
Ghost, looking down upon the valley of the Milkwater where Mance Rayder had gathered his people,
and that dream had turned out to be true. But he was not dreaming now, and that left him only words.
"You cannot come with me," Jon said, cupping the wolf's head in his hands and looking deep into those
eyes. "You have to go to Castle Black. Do you understand? Castle Black. Can you find it? The way


home? just follow the ice, east and east, into the sun, and you'll find it. They will know you at Castle
Black, and maybe your coming will warn them." He had thought of writing out a warning for Ghost to
carry, but he had no ink, no parchment, not even a writing quill, and the risk of discovery was too great.
"I will meet you again at Castle Black, but you have to get there by yourself. We must each hunt alone for
a time. Alone."
The direwolf twisted free of Jon's grasp, his ears pricked up. And suddenly he was bounding away. He
loped through a tangle of brush, leapt a deadfall, and raced down the hillside, a pale streak among the
trees. Off to Castle Black? Jon wondered. Or off after a hare? He wished he knew. He feared he might
prove just as poor a warg as a sworn brother and a spy.
A wind sighed through the trees, rich with the smell of pine needles, tugging at his faded blacks. Jon
could see the Wall looming high and dark to the south, a great shadow blocking out the stars. The rough
hilly ground made him think they must be somewhere between the Shadow Tower and Castle Black, and
likely closer to the former. For days they had been wending their way south between deep lakes that
stretched like long thin fingers along the floors of narrow valleys, while flint ridges and pine-clad hills
jostled against one another to either side. Such ground
made for slow riding, but offered easy concealment for those wishing to approach the Wall unseen.
For wildling raiders, he thought. Like us. Like me.
Beyond that Wall lay the Seven Kingdoms, and everything he had sworn to protect. He had said the
words, had pledged his life and honor, and by rights he should be up there standing sentry. He should be
raising a horn to his lips to rouse the Night's Watch to arms. He had no horn, though. it would not be
hard to steal one from the wildlings, he suspected, but what would that accomplish? Even if he blew it,
there was no one to hear. The Wall was a hundred leagues long and the Watch sadly dwindled. All but
three of the strongholds had been abandoned; there might not be a brother within forty miles of here, but
for Jon. If he was a brother still ...
I should have tried to kill Mance Rayder on the Fist, even if it meant my life. That was what Qhorin
Halfhand would have done. But Jon had hesitated, and the chance passed. The next day he had ridden
off with Styr the Magnar, Jarl, and more than a hundred picked Therms and raiders. He told himself that
he was only biding his time, that when the moment came he would slip away and ride for Castle Black.
The moment never came. They rested most nights in empty wildling villages, and Styr always set a dozen
of his Therms to guard the horses. Jarl watched him suspiciously. And Ygritte was never far, day or night.
Two hearts that beat as one. Mance Rayder's mocking words rang bitter in his head. Jon had seldom felt
so confused. I have no choice, he'd told himself the first time, when she slipped beneath his sleeping
skins. If I refuse her, she will know me for a tumcloak. I am playing the part the Halfhand told me to play.
His body had played the part eagerly enough. His lips on hers, his hand sliding under her doeskin shirt to
find a breast, his manhood stiffening when she rubbed her mound against it through their clothes. My
vows, he'd thought, remembering the weirwood grove where he had said them, the nine great white trees
in a circle, the carved red faces watching, listening. But her fingers were undoing his laces and her tongue
was in his mouth and her hand slipped inside his smallclothes and brought him out, and he could not see
the weirwoods anymore, only her. She bit his neck and he nuzzled hers, burying his nose in her thick red
hair. Lucky, he thought, she is lucky, fire-kissed. "Isn't that good?" she whispered as she guided him
inside her. She was sopping wet down there, and no maiden, that was plain, but Jon did not care. His
vows, her maidenhood, none of it mattered, only the heat of her, the mouth on his, the finger that pinched
at his nipple. "Isn't that sweet?" she said again. "Not so fast, oh, slow, yes, like that. There now, there


now, yes, sweet, sweet. You know nothing, Jon Snow, but I can show you. Harder now. Yessss."
A part, he tried to remind himself afterward. I am playing a part. I had to do it once, to prove I'd
abandoned my vows. I had to make her trust me. It need never happen again. He was still a man of the
Night's Watch, and a son of Eddard Stark. He had done what needed to be done, proved what needed
to be proven.
The proving had been so sweet, though, and Ygritte had gone to sleep beside him with her head against
his chest, and that was sweet as well, dangerously sweet. He thought of the weirwoods again, and the
words he'd said before them. It was only once, and it had to be. Even my father stumbled once, when he
forgot his marriage vows and sired a bastard. Jon vowed to himself that it would be the same with him. It
will never happen again.
It happened twice more that night, and again in the morning, when she woke to find him hard. The
wildlings were stirring by then, and several could not help but notice what was going on beneath the pile
of furs. Jarl told them to be quick about it, before he had to throw a pail of water over them. Like a pair
of rutting dogs, Jon thought afterward. Was that what he'd become? I am a man of the Night's Watch, a
small voice inside insisted, but every night it seemed a little fainter, and when Ygritte kissed his ears or bit
his neck, he could not hear it at all. Was this how it was for my father? he wondered. Was he as weak as
I am, when he dishonored himself in my mother's bed?
Something was coming up the hill behind him, he realized suddenly. For half a heartbeat he thought it
might be Ghost come back, but the direwolf never made so much noise. Jon drew Longclaw in a single
smooth motion, but it was only one of the Thenns, a broad man in a bronze helm. "Snow," the intruder
said. "Come. Magnar wants." The men of Therm spoke the Old Tongue, and most had only a few words
of the Common.
Jon did not much care what the Magnar wanted, but there was no use arguing with someone who could
scarcely understand him, so he followed the man back down the hill.
The mouth of the cave was a cleft in the rock barely wide enough for a horse, half concealed behind a
soldier pine. It opened to the north, so the glows of the fires within would not be visible from the Wall.
Even if by some mischance a patrol should happen to pass atop the Wall tonight, they would see nothing
but hills and pines and the icy sheen of starlight on a half-frozen lake. Mance Rayder had planned his
thrust well.
Within the rock, the passage descended twenty feet before it opened out onto a space as large as
Winterfell's Great Hall. Cookfires burned amongst the columns, their smoke rising to blacken the stony
ceiling. The horses had been hobbled along one wall, beside a shallow pool. A sinkhole in the center of
the floor opened on what might have been an even greater cavern below, though the darkness made it
hard to tell. Jon
could hear the soft rushing sound of an underground stream somewhere below as well.
Jarl was with the Magnar; Mance had given them the joint command. Styr was none too pleased by that,
Jon had noted early on. Mance Rayder had called the dark youth a "pet" of Val, who was sister to Dalla,
his own queen, which made Jarl a sort of good brother once removed to the King-beyond-the-Wall. The
Magnar plainly resented sharing his authority. He had brought a hundred Therms, five times as many men
as Jarl, and often acted as if he had the sole command. But it would be the younger man who got them
over the ice, Jon knew. Though he could not have been older than twenty, Jarl had been raiding for eight
years, and had gone over the Wall a dozen times with the likes of Alfyn Crowkiller and the Weeper, and


more recently with his own band.
The Magnar was direct. "Jarl has warned me of crows, patrolling on high. Tell me all you know of these
patrols."
Tell me, Jon noted, not tell us, though Jarl stood right beside him. He would have liked nothing better
than to refuse the brusque demand, but he knew Styr would put him to death at the slightest disloyalty,
and Ygritte as well, for the crime of being his. "There are four men in each patrol, two rangers and two
builders," he said. "The builders are supposed to make note of cracks, melting, and other structural
problems, while the rangers look for signs of foes. They ride mules."
"Mules?" The earless man frowned. "Mules are slow."
"Slow, but more surefooted on the ice. The patrols often ride atop the Wall, and aside from Castle
Black, the paths up there have not been graveled for long years. The mules are bred at Eastwatch, and
specially trained to their duty."
"They often ride atop the Wall? Not always?"
"No. One patrol in four follows the base instead, to search for cracks in the foundation ice or signs of
tunneling."
The Magnar nodded. "Even in far Therm we know the tale of Arson Iceaxe and his tunnel."
Jon knew the tale as well. Arson Iceaxe had been halfway through the Wall when his tunnel was found
by rangers from the Nightfort. They did not trouble to disturb him at his digging, only sealed the way
behind with ice and stone and snow. Dolorous Edd used to say that if you pressed your ear flat to the
Wall, you could still hear Arson chipping away with his axe.
"When do these patrols go out? How often?"
Jon shrugged. "It changes. I've heard that Lord Commander Qorgyle used to send them out every third
day from Castle Black to Eastwatch-bythe-Sea, and every second day from Castle Black to the Shadow
Tower. The Watch had more men in his day, though. Lord Commander Mormont
prefers to vary the number of patrols and the days of their departure, to make it more difficult for anyone
to know their comings and goings. And sometimes the Old Bear will even send a larger force to one of
the abandoned castles for a fortnight or a moon's turn." His uncle had originated that tactic, Jon knew.
Anything to make the enemy unsure.
"Is Stonedoor manned at present?" asked Jarl. "Greyguard?"
So we're between those two, are we? Jon kept his face carefully blank. "Only Eastwatch, Castle Black,
and the Shadow Tower were manned when I left the Wall. I can't speak to what Bowen Marsh or Ser
Denys might have done since."
"How many crows remain within the castles?" asked Styr.
"Five hundred at Castle Black. Two hundred at Shadow Tower, perhaps three hundred at Eastwatch."
Jon added three hundred men to the count. If only it were that easy ...


Jarl was not fooled, however. "He's lying," he told Styr. "Or else including those they lost on the Fist."
"Crow," the Magnar warned, "do not take me for Mance Rayder. If you lie to me, I will have your
tongue."
"I'm no crow, and won't be called a liar." Jon flexed the fingers of his sword hand.
The Magnar of Therm studied Jon with his chilly grey eyes. "We shall learn their numbers soon enough,"
he said after a moment. "Go. I will send for you if I have further questions."
Jon bowed his head stiffly, and went. If all the wildlings were like Styr, it would be easier to betray them.
The Therms were not like other free folk, though. The Magnar claimed to be the last of the First Men,
and ruled with an iron hand. His little land of Therm was a high mountain valley hidden amongst the
northernmost peaks of the Frostfangs, surrounded by cave dwellers, Hornfoot men, giants, and the
cannibal clans of the ice rivers. Ygritte said the Therms were savage fighters, and that their Magnar was a
god to them. Jon could believe that. Unlike Jarl and Harma and Rattleshirt, Styr commanded absolute
obedience from his men, and that discipline was no doubt part of why Mance had chosen him to go over
the Wall.
He walked past the Thenns, sitting atop their rounded bronze helms about their cookfires. Where did
Ygrette get herself to? He found her gear and his together, but no sign of the girl herself. "She took a
torch and went off that way," Grigg the Goat told him, pointing toward the back of the cavern.
Jon followed his finger, and found himself in a dim back room wandering through a maze of columns and
stalactites. She can't be here, he was thinking, when he heard her laugh. He turned toward the sound ' but
within ten paces he was in a dead end, facing a blank wall of rose and
white flowstone. Baffled, he made his way back the way he'd come, and then he saw it: a dark hole
under an outthrust of wet stone. He knelt, listened, heard the faint sound of water. "Ygritte?"
"In here," her voice came back, echoing faintly.
Jon had to crawl a dozen paces before the cave opened up around him. When he stood again, it took
his eyes a moment to adjust. Ygritte had brought a torch, but there was no other light. She stood beside a
little waterfall that fell from a cleft in the rock down into a wide dark pool. The orange and yellow flames
shone against the pale green water.
"What are you doing here?" he asked her.
"I heard water. I wanted t'see how deep the cave went." She pointed with the torch. "There's a passage
goes down further. I followed it a hundred paces before I turned back."
"A dead end?"
"You know nothing, Jon Snow. It went on and on and on. There are hundreds o' caves in these hills, and
down deep they all connect. There's even a way under your Wall. Gorne's Way."
"Gorne," said Jon. "Gorne was King-beyond-the-Wall."
"Aye," said Ygritte. "Together with his brother Gendel, three thousand years ago. They led a host o' free
folk through the caves, and the Watch was none the wiser. But when they come out, the wolves o'


Winterfell fell upon them."
"There was a battle," Jon recalled. "Gorne slew the King in the North, but his son picked up his banner
and took the crown from his head, and cut down Gorne in turn."
"And the sound o' swords woke the crows in their castles, and they rode out all in black to take the free
folk in the rear."
"Yes. Gendel had the king to the south, the Umbers to the east, and the Watch to the north of him. He
died as well."
"You know nothing, Jon Snow. Gendel did not die. He cut his way free, through the crows, and led his
people back north with the wolves howling at their heels. Only Gendel did not know the caves as Gorne
had, and took a wrong turn." She swept the torch back and forth, so the shadows jumped and moved.
"Deeper he went, and deeper, and when he tried t' turn back the ways that seemed familiar ended in
stone rather than sky. Soon his torches began t' fail, one by one, till finally there was naught but dark.
Gendel's folk were never seen again, but on a still night you can hear their children's children's children
sobbing under the hills, still looking for the way back up. Listen? Do you hear them?"
All Jon could hear was the falling water and the faint crackle of flames. "This way under the Wall was
lost as well?"
"Some have searched for it. Them that go too deep find Gendel's children, and Gendel's children are
always hungry." Smiling, she set the
torch carefully in a notch of rock, and came toward him. "There's naught to eat in the dark but flesh," she
whispered, biting at his neck.
Jon nuzzled her hair and filled his nose with the smell of her. "You sound like Old Nan, telling Bran a
monster story."
Ygritte punched his shoulder. "An old woman, am F"
"You're older than me."
"Aye, and wiser. You know nothing, Jon Snow." She pushed away from him, and shrugged out of her
rabbitskin vest.
"What are you doing?"
"Showing you how old I am." She unlaced her doeskin shirt, tossed it aside, pulled her three woolen
undershirts up over her head all at once. "I want you should see me."
"We shouldn't - "
"We should." Her breasts bounced as she stood on one leg to pull one boot, then hopped onto her other
foot to attend to the other. Her nipples were wide pink circles. "You as well," Ygritte said as she yanked
down her sheepskin breeches. "If you want to look you have to show. You know nothing, Jon Snow."
"I know I want you," he heard himself say, all his vows and all his honor forgotten. She stood before him
naked as her name day, and he was as hard as the rock around them. He had been in her half a hundred


times by now, but always beneath the furs, with others all around them. He had never seen how beautiful
she was. Her legs were skinny but well muscled, the hair at the juncture of her thighs a brighter red than
that on her head. Does that make it even luckier? He pulled her close. "I love the smell of you," he said.
"I love your red hair. I love your mouth, and the way you kiss me. I love your smile. I love your teats."
He kissed them, one and then the other. "I love your skinny legs, and what's between them." He knelt to
kiss her there, lightly on her mound at first, but Ygritte moved her legs apart a little, and he saw the pink
inside and kissed that as well, and tasted her. She gave a little gasp. "If you love me all so much, why are
you still dressed?" she whispered. "You know nothing, Jon Snow. Noth - oh. Oh. OHHH."
Afterward, she was almost shy, or as shy as Ygritte ever got. "That thing you did," she said, when they
lay together on their piled clothes. "With your ... mouth." She hesitated. "Is that ... is it what lords do to
their ladies, down in the south?"
"I don't think so." No one had ever told Jon just what lords did with their ladies. "I only ... wanted to
kiss you there, that's all. You seemed to like it."
"Aye. I ... I liked it some. No one taught you such?"
"There's been no one," he confessed. "Only you."
"A maid," she teased. "You were a maid."
He gave her closest nipple a playful pinch. "I was a man of the Night's Watch." Was, he heard himself
say. What was he now? He did not want to look at that. "Were you a maid?"
Ygritte pushed herself onto an elbow. "I am nineteen, and a spearwife, and kissed by fire. How could I
be maiden?"
"Who was he?"
"A boy at a feast, five years past. He'd come trading with his brothers, and he had hair like mine, kissed
by fire, so I thought he would be lucky. But he was weak. When he came back t' try and steal me,
Longspear broke his arm and ran him off, and he never tried again, not once."
"It wasn't Longspear, then?" Jon was relieved. He liked Longspear, with his homely face and friendly
ways.
She punched him. "That's vile. Would you bed your sister?"
"Longspear's not your brother."
"He's of my village. You know nothing, Jon Snow. A true man steals a woman from afar, t' strengthen
the clan. Women who bed brothers or fathers or clan kin offend the gods, and are cursed with weak and
sickly children. Even monsters."
"Craster weds his daughters," Jon pointed out.
She punched him again. "Craster's more your kind than ours. His father was a crow who stole a woman
out of Whitetree village, but after he had her he flew back t' his Wall. She went t' Castle Black once t'
show the crow his son, but the brothers blew their horns and run her off. Craster's blood is black, and he
bears a heavy curse." She ran her fingers lightly across his stomach. "I feared you'd do the same once.


Fly back to the Wall. You never knew what t' do after you stole me."
Jon sat up. "Ygritte, I never stole you."
"Aye, you did. You jumped down the mountain and killed Orell, and afore I could get my axe you had a
knife at my throat. I thought you'd have me then, or kill me, or maybe both, but you never did. And when
I told you the tale o' Bael the Bard and how he plucked the rose o' Winterfell, I thought you'd know to
pluck me then for certain, but you didn't. You know nothing, Jon Snow." She gave him a shy smile. "You
might be learning some, though."
The light was shifting all about her, Jon noticed suddenly. He looked around. "We had best go up. The
torch is almost done."
"Is the crow afeared o' Gendel's children?" she said, with a grin. "It's only a little way up, and I'm not
done with you, Jon Snow." She pushed him back down on the clothes and straddled him. "Would you . .
. " She hesitated.
"What?" he prompted, as the torch began to gutter.
"Do it again?" Ygritte blurted. "With your mouth? The lord's kiss? And I . .. I could see if you liked it
any."
By the time the torch burned out, Jon Snow no longer cared.
His guilt came back afterward, but weaker than before. ff this is so wrong, he wondered, why did the
gods make it feel so good?
The grotto was pitch-dark by the time they finished. The only light was the dim glow of the passage back
up to the larger cavern, where a score of fires burned. They were soon fumbling and bumping into each
other as they tried to dress in the dark. Ygritte stumbled into the pool and screeched at the cold of the
water. When Jon laughed, she pulled him in too. They wrestled and splashed in the dark, and then she
was in his arms again, and it turned out they were not finished after all.
"Jon Snow," she told him, when he'd spent his seed inside her, "don't move now, sweet. I like the feel of
you in there, I do. Let's not go back t' Styr and Jarl. Let's go down inside, and join up with Gendel's
children. I don't ever want t' leave this cave, Jon Snow. Not ever."
Chapter 27
DAENERYS
"All?" The slave girl sounded wary. "Your Grace, did this one's worthless ears mishear you?"
Cool green light filtered down through the diamond-shaped panes of colored glass set in the sloping
triangular walls, and a breeze was blowing gently through the terrace doors, carrying the scents of fruit
and flowers from the garden beyond. "Your ears heard true," said Dany. "I want to buy them all. Tell the
Good Masters, if you will."


She had chosen a Qartheen gown today. The deep violet silk brought out the purple of her eyes. The cut
of it bared her left breast. While the Good Masters of Astapor conferred among themselves in low
voices, Dany sipped tart persimmon wine from a tall silver flute. She could not quite make out all that
they were saying, but she could hear the greed.
Each of the eight brokers was attended by two or three body slaves ... though one Grazdan, the eldest,
had six. So as not to seem a beggar, Dany had brought her own attendants; Irri and Jhiqui in their
sandsilk trousers and painted vests, old Whitebeard and mighty Belwas, her bloodriders. Ser Jorah stood
behind her sweltering in his green surcoat with the black bear of Mormont embroidered upon it. The
smell of his sweat was an earthy answer to the sweet perfumes that drenched the Astapori.
"All," growled Kraznys mo Nakloz, who smelled of peaches today. The slave girl repeated the word in
the Common Tongue of Westeros. "Of thousands, there are eight. is this what she means by all? There
are also six centuries, who shall be part of a ninth thousand when complete. Would she have them too?"
"I would," said Dany when the question was put to her. "The eight
thousands, the six centuries ... and the ones still in training as well. The ones who have not earned the
spikes."
Kraznys turned back to his fellows. once again they conferred among themselves. The translator had
told Dany their names, but it was hard to keep them straight. Four of the men seemed to be named
Grazdan, presumably after Grazdan the Great who had founded Old Ghis in the dawn of days. They all
looked alike; thick fleshy men with amber skin, broad noses, dark eyes. Their wiry hair was black, or a
dark red, or that queer mixture of red and black that was peculiar to Ghiscari. All wrapped themselves in
tokars, a garment permitted only to freeborn men of Astapor.
It was the fringe on the tokar that proclaimed a man's status, Dany had been told by Captain Groleo. In
this cool green room atop the pyramid, two of the slavers wore tokars fringed in silver, five had gold
fringes, and one, the oldest Grazdan, displayed a fringe of fat white pearls that clacked together softly
when he shifted in his seat or moved an arm.
"We cannot sell half-trained boys," one of the silver-fringe Grazdans was saying to the others.
"We can, if her gold is good," said a fatter man whose fringe was gold.
"They are not Unsullied. They have not killed their sucklings. If they fail in the field, they will shame us.
And even if we cut five thousand raw boys tomorrow, it would be ten years before they are fit for sale.
What would we tell the next buyer who comes seeking Unsullied?"
"We will tell him that he must wait," said the fat man. "Gold in my purse is better than gold in my future."
Dany let them argue, sipping the tart persimmon wine and trying to keep her face blank and ignorant. I
will have them all, no matter the price, she told herself. The city had a hundred slave traders, but the eight
before her were the greatest. When selling bed slaves, fieldhands, scribes, craftsmen, and tutors, these
men were rivals, but their ancestors had allied one with the other for the purpose of making and selling
the Unsullied. Brick and blood built Astapor, and brick and blood her people.
It was Kraznys who finally announced their decision. "Tell her that the eight thousands she shall have, if
her gold proves sufficient. And the six centuries, if she wishes. Tell her to come back in a year, and we


will sell her another two thousand."
"in a year I shall be in Westeros," said Dany when she had heard the translation. "My need is now The
Unsullied are well trained, but even so, many will fall in battle. I shall need the boys as replacements to
take up the swords they drop." She put her wine aside and leaned toward the slave girl. "Tell the Good
Masters that I will want even the little ones who still have their puppies. Tell them that I will pay as much
for the boy they cut yesterday as for an Unsullied in a spiked helm."
The girl told them. The answer was still no.
Dany frowned in annoyance. "Very well. Tell them I will pay double, so long as I get them all."
"Double?" The fat one in the gold fringe all but drooled.
"This little whore is a fool, truly," said Khaznys mo Nakloz. "Ask her for triple, I say. She is desperate
enough to pay. Ask for ten times the price of every slave, yes."
The tall Grazdan with the spiked beard spoke in the Common Tongue, though not so well as the slave
girl. "Your Grace," he growled, "Westeros is being wealthy, yes, but you are not being queen now.
Perhaps will never being queen. Even Unsullied may be losing battles to savage steel knights of Seven
Kingdoms. I am reminding, the Good Masters of Astapor are not selling flesh for promisings. Are you
having gold and trading goods sufficient to be paying for all these eunuchs you are wanting?"
"You know the answer to that better than I, Good Master," Dany replied. "Your men have gone through
my ships and tallied every bead of amber and jar of saffron. How much do I have?"
"Sufficient to be buying one of thousands," the Good Master said, with a contemptuous smile. "Yet you
are paying double, you are saying. Five centuries, then, is all you buy."
"Your pretty crown might buy another century," said the fat one in Valyrian. "Your crown of the three
dragons."
Dany waited for his words to be translated. "My crown is not for sale." When Viserys sold their
mother's crown, the last joy had gone from him, leaving only rage. "Nor will I enslave my people, nor sell
their goods and horses. But my ships you can have. The great cog Balerion and the galleys Vhagar and
Meraxes." She had warned Groleo and the other captains it might come to this, though they had
protested the necessity of it furiously. "Three good ships should be worth more than a few paltry
eunuchs."
The fat Grazdan turned to the others. They conferred in low voices once again. "Two of the thousands,"
the one with the spiked beard said when he turned back. "It is too much, but the Good Masters are being
generous and your need is being great."
Two thousand would never serve for what she meant to do. I must have them all. Dany knew what she
must do now, though the taste of it was so bitter that even the persimmon wine could not cleanse it from
her month. She had considered long and hard and found no other way. It is my only choice. "Give me
all," she said, "and you may have a dragon."
There was the sound of indrawn breath from Jhiqui beside her. Kraznys smiled at his fellows. "Did I not
tell you? Anything, she would give us."


Whitebeard stared in shocked disbelief. His hand trembled where it
grasped the staff. "No." He went to one knee before her. "Your Grace, I beg you, win your throne with
dragons, not slaves. You must not do this thing - "
"You must not presume to instruct me. Ser Jorah, remove Whitebeard from my presence."
Mormont seized the old man roughly by an elbow, yanked him back to his feet, and marched him out
onto the terrace.
"Tell the Good Masters I regret this interruption," said Dany to the slave girl. "Tell them I await their
answer."
She knew the answer, though; she could see it in the glitter of their eyes and the smiles they tried so hard
to hide. Astapor had thousands of eunuchs, and even more slave boys waiting to be cut, but there were
only three living dragons in all the great wide world. And the Ghiscari lust for dragons. How could they
not? Five times had Old Ghis contended with Valyria when the world was young, and five times gone
down to bleak defeat. For the Freehold had dragons, and the Empire had none.
The oldest Grazdan stirred in his seat ' and his pearls clacked together softly. "A dragon of our choice,"
he said in a thin, hard voice. "The black one is largest and healthiest."
"His name is Drogon." She nodded.
"All your goods, save your crown and your queenly raiment, which we will allow you to keep. The three
ships. And Drogon."
"Done," she said, in the Common Tongue.
"Done," the old Grazdan answered in his thick Valyrian.
The others echoed that old man of the pearl fringe. "Done," the slave girl translated, "and done, and
done, eight times done."
"The Unsullied will learn your savage tongue quick enough," added Kraznys mo Nakloz, when all the
arrangements had been made, "but until such time you will need a slave to speak to them. Take this one
as our gift to you, a token of a bargain well struck."
"I shall," said Dany.
The slave girl rendered his words to her, and-hers to him. if she had feelings about being given for a
token, she took care not to let them show.
Arstan Whitebeard held his tongue as well, when Dany swept by him on the terrace. He followed her
down the steps in silence, but she could hear his hardwood staff tap tapping on the red bricks as they
went. She did not blame him for his fury. It was a wretched thing she did. The Mother of Dragons has
sold her strongest child. Even the thought made her ill.
Yet down in the Plaza of Pride, standing on the hot red bricks between the slavers' pyramid and the
barracks of the eunuchs, Dany turned on the old man. "Whitebeard," she said, "I want your counsel, and
you


should never fear to speak your mind with me ... when we are alone. But never question me in front of
strangers. Is that understood?"
"Yes, Your Grace," he said unhappily.
"I am not a child," she told him. "I am a queen."
"Yet even queens can err. The Astapori have cheated you, Your Grace. A dragon is worth more than
any army. Aegon proved that three hundred years ago, upon the Field of Fire."
"I know what Aegon proved. I mean to prove a few things of my own." Dany turned away from him, to
the slave girl standing meekly beside her litter. "Do you have a name, or must you draw a new one every
day from some barrel?"
"That is only for Unsullied," the girl said. Then she realized the question had been asked in High Valyrian.
Her eyes went wide. "Oh."
"Your name is Oh?"
"No. Your Grace, forgive this one her outburst. Your slave's name is Missandei, but . . . "
"Missandei is no longer a slave. I free you, from this instant. Come ride with me in the litter, I wish to
talk." Rakharo helped them in, and Dany drew the curtains shut against the dust and heat. "If you stay
with me you will serve as one of my handmaids," she said as they set off. "I shall keep you by my side to
speak for me as you spoke for Kraznys. But you may leave my service whenever you choose, if you
have father or mother you would sooner return to."
"This one will stay," the girl said. "This one ... I ... there is no place for me to go. This ... I will serve you,
gladly."
"I can give you freedom, but not safety," Dany warned. "I have a world to cross and wars to fight. You
may go hungry. You may grow sick. You may be killed."
"Valar morghuhs," said Missandei, in High Valyrian.
"All men must die," Dany agreed, "but not for a long while, we may pray." She leaned back on the
pillows and took the girl's hand. "Are these Unsullied truly fearless?"
"Yes, Your Grace."
"You serve me now. is it true they feel no pain?"
"The wine of courage kills such feelings. By the time they slay their sucklings, they have been drinking it
for years."
"And they are obedient?"
"Obedience is all they know. If you told them not to breathe, they would find that easier than not to
obey."


Dany nodded. "And when I am done with them?"
"Your Grace?"
"When I have won my war and claimed the throne that was my father's, my knights will sheathe their
swords and return to their keeps, to their
wives and children and mothers ... to their lives. But these eunuchs have no lives. What am I to do with
eight thousand eunuchs when there are no more battles to be fought?"
"The Unsullied make flne guards and excellent watchmen, Your Grace," said Missandei. "And it is never
hard to find a buyer for such fine well-blooded troops."
"Men are not bought and sold in Westeros, they tell me."
"With all respect, Your Grace, Unsullied are not men."
"If I did resell them, how would I know they could not be used against me?" Dany asked pointedly.
"Would they do that? Fight against me, even do me harm?"
"If their master commanded. They do not question, Your Grace. All the questions have been culled from
them. They obey." She looked troubled. "When you are ... when you are done with them ... Your Grace
might command them to fall upon their swords."
"And even that, they would do?"
"Yes." Missandei's voice had grown soft. "Your Grace."
Dany squeezed her hand. "You would sooner I did not ask it of them, though. Why is that? Why do you
care?"
"This one does not ... I ... Your Grace . . .
"Tell me."
The girl lowered her eyes. "Three of them were my brothers once, Your Grace."
Then I hope your brothers are as brave and clever as you. Dany leaned back into her pillow, and let the
litter bear her onward, back to Balerion one last time to set her world in order. And back to Drogon.
Her mouth set grimly.
It was a long, dark, windy night that followed. Dany fed her dragons as she always did, but found she
had no appetite herself. She cried awhile, alone in her cabin, then dried her tears long enough for yet
another argument with Groleo. "Magister Illyrio is not here," she finally had to tell him, "and if he was, he
could not sway me either. I need the Unsullied more than I need these ships, and I will hear no more
about it."
The anger burned the grief and fear from her, for a few hours at the least. Afterward she called her
bloodriders to her cabin, with Ser Jorah. They were the only ones she truly trusted.
She meant to sleep afterward, to be well rested for the morrow, but an hour of restless tossing in the


stuffy confines of the cabin soon convinced her that was hopeless. Outside her door she found Aggo
fitting anew string to his bow by the light of a swinging oil lamp. Rakharo sat
crosslegged on the deck beside him, sharpening his arakh with a whetstone. Dany told them both to
keep on with what they were doing, and
went up on deck for a taste of the cool night air. The crew left her alone
as they went about their business, but Ser Jorah soon joined her by the rail. He is never far, Dany
thought. He knows my moods too well.
"Khaleesi. You ought to be asleep. Tomorrow will be hot and hard, I promise you. You'll need your
strength."
"Do you remember Eroeh?" she asked him.
"The Lhazareen girl?"
"They were raping her, but I stopped them and took her under my protection. Only when my
sun-and-stars was dead Mago took her back, used her again, and killed her. Aggo said it was her fate."
"I remember," Ser Jorah said.
"I was alone for a long time, Jorah. All alone but for my brother. I was such a small scared thing. Viserys
should have protected me, but instead he hurt me and scared me worse. He shouldn't have done that. He
wasn't just my brother, he was my king. Why do the gods make kings and queens, if not to protect the
ones who can't protect themselves?"
"Some kings make themselves. Robert did."
"He was no true king," Dany said scornfully. "He did no justice. justice ... that's what kings are for."
Ser Jorah had no answer. He only smiled, and touched her hair, so lightly. it was enough.
That night she dreamt that she was Rhaegar, riding to the Trident. But she was mounted on a dragon, not
a horse. When she saw the Usurper's rebel host across the river they were armored all in ice, but she
bathed them in dragonfire and they melted away like dew and turned the Trident into a torrent. Some
small part of her knew that she was dreaming, but another part exulted. This is how it was meant to be.
The other was a nightmare, and I have only now awakened.
She woke suddenly in the darkness of her cabin, still flush with triumph. Balerion seemed to wake with
her, and she heard the faint creak of wood, water lapping against the hull, a footfall on the deck above
her head. And something else.
Someone was in the cabin with her.
"Irri? Jhiqui? Where are you?" Her handmaids did not respond. It was too black to see, but she could
hear them breathing. "Jorah, is that you?"
"They sleep," a woman said. "They all sleep." The voice was very close. "Even dragons must sleep."


She is standing over me. "Who's there?" Dany peered into the darkness. She thought she could see a
shadow, the faintest outline of a shape. "What do you want of me?"
"Remember. To go north, you must journey south. To reach the west, you must go east. To go forward
you must go back, and to touch the light you must pass beneath the shadow."
"Quaithe?" Dany sprung from the bed and threw open the door. Pale
yellow lantern light flooded the cabin, and Irri and Jhiqui sat up sleepily. "Khaleesi?" murmured Jhiqui,
rubbing her eyes. Viserion woke and opened his jaws, and a puff of flame brightened even the darkest
comers. There was no sign of a woman in a red lacquer mask. "Khaleesi, are you unwell?" asked Jhiqui.
"A dream." Dany shook her head. "I dreamed a dream, no more. Go back to sleep. All of us, go back
to sleep." Yet try as she might, sleep would not come again.
If I look back I am lost, Dany told herself the next morning as she entered Astapor through the harbor
gates. She dared not remind herself how small and insignificant her following truly was, or she would lose
all courage. Today she rode her silver, clad in horsehair pants and painted leather vest, a bronze
medallion belt about her waist and two more crossed between her breasts. Irri and Jhiqui had braided
her hair and hung it with a tiny silver bell whose chime sang of the Undying of Qarth, burned in their
Palace of Dust.
The red brick streets of Astapor were almost crowded this morning. Slaves and servants lined the ways,
while the slavers and their women donned their tokars to look down from their stepped pyramids. They
are not so different from Qartheen after all, she thought. They want a glimpse of dragons to tell their
children of, and their children's children. It made her wonder how many of them would ever have
children.
Aggo went before her with his great Dothraki bow. Strong Belwas walked to the right of her mare, the
girl Missandei to her left. Ser Jorah Mormont was behind in mail and surcoat, glowering at anyone who
came too near. Rakharo and Jhogo protected the litter. Dany had commanded that the top be removed,
so her three dragons might be chained to the platform. Irri and Jhiqui rode with them, to try and keep
them calm. Yet Viserion's tail lashed back and forth, and smoke rose angry from his nostrils. Rhaegal
could sense something wrong as well. Thrice he tried to take wing, only to be pulled down by the heavy
chain in Jhiqui's hand. Drogon coiled into a ball, wings and tail tucked tight. Only his eyes remained to tell
that he was not asleep.
The rest of her people followed: Groleo and the other captains and their crews, and the eighty-three
Dothraki who remained to her of the hundred thousand who had once ridden in Drogo's khalasar. She
put the oldest and weakest on the inside of the column, with the nursing women and those with child, and
the little girls, and the boys too young to braid their hair. The rest - her warriors, such as they were - rode
outside and moved their dismal herd along, the hundred-odd gaunt horses that had survived both red
waste and black salt sea.
I ought to have a banner sewn, she thought as she led her tattered band up along Astapor's meandering
river. She closed her eyes to imagine
how it would look: all flowing black silk, and on it the red three-headed dragon of Targaryen, breathing
golden flames. A banner such as Rhaegar might have borne. The river's banks were strangely tranquil.
The Worm, the Astapori called the stream. It was wide and slow and crooked, dotted with tiny wooded
islands. She glimpsed children playing on one of them, darting amongst elegant marble statues. On


another island two lovers kissed in the shade of tall green trees, with no more shame than Dothraki at a
wedding. Without clothing, she could not tell if they were slave or free.
The Plaza of Pride with its great bronze harpy was too small to hold all the Unsullied she had bought.
instead they had been assembled in the Plaza of Punishment, fronting on Astapor's main gate, so they
might be marched directly from the city once Daenerys had taken them in hand. There were no bronze
statues here; only a wooden platform where rebellious slaves were racked, and flayed, and hanged. "The
Good Masters place them so they will be the first thing a new slave sees upon entering the city,"
Missandei told her as they came to the plaza.
At first glimpse, Dany thought their skin was striped like the zorses of the jogos Nhai. Then she rode her
silver nearer and saw the raw red flesh beneath the crawling black stripes. Flies. Flies and maggots. The
rebellious slaves had been peeled like a man might peel an apple, in a long curling strip. One man had an
arm black with flies from fingers to elbow, and red and white beneath. Dany reined in beneath him.
"What did this one do?"
"He raised a hand against his owner."
Her stomach roiling, Dany wheeled her silver about and trotted toward the center of the plaza, and the
army she had bought so dear. Rank on rank on rank they stood, her stone halfmen with their hearts of
brick; eight thousand and six hundred in the spiked bronze caps of fully trained Unsullied, and five
thousand odd behind them, bareheaded, yet armed with spears and shortswords. The ones farthest to the
back were only boys, she saw, but they stood as straight and still as all the rest.
Kraznys mo Nakloz and his fellows were all there to greet her. Other well-born Astapori stood in knots
behind them, sipping wine from silver flutes as slaves circulated among them with trays of olives and
cherries and figs. The elder Grazdan sat in a sedan chair supported by four huge copper-skinned slaves.
Half a dozen mounted lancers rode along the edges of the plaza, keeping back the crowds who had
come to watch. The sun flashed blinding bright off the polished copper disks sewn to their cloaks, but she
could not help but notice how nervous their horses seemed. They fear the dragons. And well they might.
Kraznys had a slave help her from her saddle. His own hands were full; one clutched his tokar, while the
other held an omate whip. "Here
they are." He looked at Missandei. "Tell her they are hers ... if she can pay."
"She can," the girl said.
Ser Jorah barked a command, and the trade goods were brought forward. Six bales of tiger skins, three
hundred bolts of fine silk. jars of saffron, jars of myrrh, jars of pepper and curry and cardamom, an onyx
mask, twelve jade monkeys, casks of ink in red and black and green, a box of rare black amethysts, a
box of pearls, a cask of pitted olives stuffed with maggots, a dozen casks of pickled cave fish, a great
brass gong and a hammer to beat it with, seventeen ivory eyes, and a huge chest full of books written in
tongues that Dany could not read. And more, and more, and more. Her people stacked it all before the
slavers.
While the payment was being made, Kraznys mo Nakloz favored her with a few final words on the
handling of her troops. "They are green as yet," he said through Missandei. "Tell the whore of Westeros
she would be wise to blood them early. There are many small cities between here and there, cities ripe
for sacking. Whatever plunder she takes will be hers alone. Unsullied have no lust for gold or gems. And
should she take captives, a few guards will suffice to march them back to Astapor. We'll buy the healthy


ones, and for a good price. And who knows? In ten years, some of the boys she sends us may be
Unsullied in their turn. Thus all shall prosper."
Finally there were no more trade goods to add to the pile. Her Dothraki mounted their horses once
more, and Dany said, "This was all we could carry. The rest awaits you on the ships, a great quantity of
amber and wine and black rice. And you have the ships themselves. So all that remains is..."
". . . the dragon," finished the Grazdan with the spiked beard, who spoke the Common Tongue so
thickly.
"And here he waits." Ser Jorah and Belwas walked beside her to the litter, where Drogon and his
brothers lay basking in the sun. Jhiqui unfastened one end of the chain, and handed it down to her. When
she gave a yank, the black dragon raised his head, hissing, and unfolded wings of night and scarlet.
Kraznys mo Nakloz smiled broadly as their shadow fell across him.
Dany handed the slaver the end of Drogon's chain. In return he presented her with the whip. The handle
was black dragonbone, elaborately carved and inlaid with gold. Nine long thin leather lashes trailed from
it, each one tipped by a gilded claw. The gold pommel was a woman's head, with pointed ivory teeth.
"The harpy's fingers," Kraznys named the scourge.
Dany turned the whip in her hand. Such a light thing, to bear such weight. "Is it done, then? Do they
belong to me?"
"It is done," he agreed, giving the chain a sharp pull to bring Drogon down from the litter.
Dany mounted her silver. She could feel her heart thumping in her chest. She felt desperately afraid. Was
this what my brother would have done? She wondered if Prince Rhaegar had been this anxious when he
saw the Usurper's host formed up across the Trident with all their banners floating on the wind.
She stood in her stirrups and raised the harpy's fingers above her head for all the Unsullied to see. "IT IS
DONE!" she cried at the top of her lungs. "YOU ARE MINE!" She gave the mare her heels and
galloped along the first rank, holding the fingers high. "YOU ARE THE DRAGON'S NOW! YOU'RE
BOUGHT AND PAID FOR! IT IS DONE! IT IS DONE!"
She glimpsed old Grazdan turn his grey head sharply. He hears me speak Valyrian. The other slavers
were not listening. They crowded around Kraznys and the dragon, shouting advice. Though the Astapori
yanked and tugged, Drogon would not budge off the litter. Smoke rose grey from his open jaws, and his
long neck curled and straightened as he snapped at the slaver's face.
It is time to cross the Trident, Dany thought, as she wheeled and rode her silver back. Her bloodriders
moved in close around her. "You are in difficulty," she observed.
"He will not come," Kraznys said.
"There is a reason. A dragon is no slave." And Dany swept the lash down as hard as she could across
the slaver's face. Kraznys screamed and staggered back, the blood running red down his cheeks into his
perfumed beard. The harpy's fingers had tom his features half to pieces with one slash, but she did not
pause to contemplate the ruin. "Drogon," she sang out loudly, sweetly, all her fear forgotten. "Dracarys."
The black dragon spread his wings and roared.


A lance of swirling dark flame took Kraznys full in the face. His eyes melted and ran down his cheeks,
and the oil in his hair and beard burst so fiercely into fire that for an instant the slaver wore a burning
crown twice as tall as his head. The sudden stench of charred meat overwhelmed even his perfume, and
his wail seemed to drown all other sound.
Then the Plaza of Punishment blew apart into blood and chaos. The Good Masters were shrieking,
stumbling, shoving one another aside and tripping over the fringes of their tokars in their haste. Drogon
flew almost lazily at Kraznys, black wings beating. As he gave the slaver another taste of fire, Irri and
Jhiqui unchained Viserion and Rhaegal, and suddenly there were three dragons in the air. When Dany
turned to look, a third of Astapor's proud demon-homed warriors were fighting to stay atop their terrified
mounts, and another third were fleeing in a bright blaze of shiny
copper. One man kept his saddle long enough to draw a sword, but Jhogo's whip coiled about his neck
and cut off his shout. Another lost a hand to Rakharo's arakh and rode off reeling and spurting blood.
Aggo sat calmly notching arrows to his bowstring and sending them at tokars. Silver, gold, or plain, he
cared nothing for the fringe. Strong Belwas had his arakh out as well, and he spun it as he charged.
"Spears!" Dany heard one Astapori shout. It was Grazdan, old Grazdan in his tokar heavy with pearls. "
Unsullied! Defend us, stop them, defend your masters! Spears! Swords!"
When Rakharo put an arrow through his mouth, the slaves holding his sedan chair broke and ran,
dumping him unceremoniously on the ground. The old man crawled to the first rank of eunuchs, his blood
pooling on the bricks. The Unsullied did not so much as look down to watch him die. Rank on rank on
rank, they stood.
And did not move. The gods have heard my prayer.
"Unsullied!" Dany galloped before them, her silver-gold braid flying behind her, her bell chiming with
every stride. "Slay the Good Masters, slay the soldiers, slay every man who wears a tokar or holds a
whip, but harm no child under twelve, and strike the chains off every slave you see." She raised the
harpy's fingers in the air ... and then she flung the scourge aside. "Freedom!" she sang out. "Dracarys!
Dracarys!"
"Dracarys!" they shouted back, the sweetest word she'd ever heard. "Dracarys! Dracarys!" And all
around them slavers ran and sobbed and begged and died, and the dusty air was filled with spears and
fire.
Chapter 28
SANSA
0n the morning her new gown was to be ready, the serving _ filled Sansa's tub with steaming hot water
and scrubbed her head to toe until she glowed pink. Cersei's own bedmaid trimmed her nails and
brushed and curled her auburn hair so it fell down her back in soft ringlets. She brought a dozen of the
queen's favorite scents as well. Sansa chose a sharp sweet fragrance with a hint of lemon in it under the
smell of flowers. The maid dabbed some on her finger and touched Sansa behind each ear, and under her
chin, and then lightly on her nipples.


Cersei herself arrived with the seamstress, and watched as they dressed Sansa in her new clothes. The
smallclothes were all silk, but the gown itself was ivory samite and cloth-of-silver, and lined with silvery
satin. The points of the long dagged sleeves almost touched the ground when she lowered her arms. And
it was a woman's gown, not a little girl's, there was no doubt of that. The bodice was slashed in front
almost to her belly, the deep vee covered over with a panel of ornate Myrish lace in dove-grey. The
skirts were long and full, the waist so tight that Sansa had to hold her breath as they laced her into it.
They brought her new shoes as well, slippers of soft grey doeskin that hugged her feet like lovers. "You
are very beautiful, my lady," the seamstress said when she was dressed.
"I am, aren't I?" Sansa giggled, and spun, her skirts swirling around her. "Oh, I am." She could not wait
for Willas to see her like this. He will love me, he will, he must ... he will forget Winterfell when he sees
me, I'll see that he does.
Queen Cersei studied her critically. "A few gems, I think. The moonstones Joffrey gave her."
"At once, Your Grace," her maid replied.
When the moonstones hung from Sansa's ears and about her neck, the queen nodded. "Yes. The gods
have been kind to you, Sansa. You are a lovely girl. It seems almost obscene to squander such sweet
innocence on that gargoyle."
"What gargoyle?" Sansa did not understand. Did she mean Willas? How could she know? No one
knew, but her and Margaery and the Queen of Thorns ... oh, and Dontos, but he didn't count.
Cersei Lannister ignored the question. "The cloak," she commanded, and the women brought it out: a
long cloak of white velvet heavy with pearls. A flerce direwolf was embroidered upon it in silver thread.
Sansa looked at it with sudden dread. "Your father's colors," said Cersei, as they fastened it about her
neck with a slender silver chain.
A maiden's cloak. Sansa's hand went to her throat. She would have torn the thing away if she had dared.
"You're prettier with your mouth closed, Sansa," Cersei told her. "Come along now, the septon is
waiting. And the wedding guests as well."
"No," Sansa blurted. "No."
"Yes. You are a ward of the crown. The king stands in your father's place, since your brother is an
attainted traitor. That means he has every right to dispose of your hand. You are to marry my brother
Tyrion."
My claim, she thought, sickened. Dontos the Fool was not so foolish after all; he had seen the truth of it.
Sansa backed away from the queen. "I won't." I'm to marry Willas, I'm to be the lady of Highgarden,
please ...
"I understand your reluctance. Cry if you must. In your place, I would likely rip my hair out. He's a
loathsome little imp, no doubt of it, but marry him you shall."
"You can't make me."
"Of course we can. You may come along quietly and say your vows as befits a lady, or you may struggle


and scream and make a spectacle for the stableboys to titter over, but you will end up wedded and
bedded all the same." The queen opened the door. Ser Meryn Trant and Ser Osmund Kettleblack were
waiting without, in the white scale armor of the Kingsguard. "Escort Lady Sansa to the sept," she told
them. "Carry her if you must, but try not to tear the gown, it was very costly-,,
Sansa tried to run, but Cersei's handmaid caught her before she'd gone a yard. Ser Meryn Trant gave
her a look that made her cringe, but Kettleblack touched her almost gently and said, "Do as you're told,
sweetling, it won't be so bad. Wolves are supposed to be brave, aren't they?"
Brave. Sansa took a deep breath. I am a Stark, yes, I can be brave. They were all looking at her, the
way they had looked at her that day in the yard when Ser Boros Blount had torn her clothes off. It had
been the
Imp who saved her from a beating that day, the same man who was waiting for her now. He is not so
bad as the rest of them, she told herself. "I'll go."
Cersei smiled. "I knew you would."
Afterward, she could not remember leaving the room or descending the steps or crossing the yard. It
seemed to take all her attention just to put one foot down in front of the other. Ser Meryn and Ser
Osmund walked beside her, in cloaks as pale as her own, lacking only the pearls and the direwolf that
had been her father's. Joffrey himself was waiting for her on the steps of the castle sept. The king was
resplendent in crimson and gold, his crown on his head. "I'm your father today," he announced.
"You're not," she flared. "You'll never be."
His face darkened. "I am. I'm your father, and I can marry you to whoever I like. To anyone. You'll
marry the pig boy if I say so, and bed down with him in the sty." His green eyes glittered with amusement.
"Or maybe I should give you to Ilyn Payne, would you like him better?"
Her heart lurched. "Please, Your Grace," she begged. "If you ever loved me even a little bit, don't make
me marry your
uncle?" Tyrion Lannister stepped through the doors of the sept. "Your Grace," he said to Joffrey. "Grant
me a moment alone with Lady Sansa, if you would be so kind?"
The king was about to refuse, but his mother gave him a sharp look. They drew off a few feet.
Tyrion wore a doublet of black velvet covered with golden scrollwork, thigh-high boots that added three
inches to his height, a chain of rubies and lions' heads. But the gash across his face was raw and red, and
his nose was a hideous scab. "You are very beautiful, Sansa," he told her.
"It is good of you to say so, my lord." She did not know what else to say. Should I tell him he is
handsome? He'll think me a fool or a liar. She lowered her gaze and held her tongue.
"My lady, this is no way to bring you to your wedding. I am sorry for that. And for making this so
sudden, and so secret. My lord father felt it necessary, for reasons of state. Else I would have come to
you sooner, as I wished." He waddled closer. "You did not ask for this marriage, I know. No more than
I did. if I had refused you, however, they would have wed you to my cousin Lancel. Perhaps you would
prefer that. He is nearer your age, and fairer to look upon. If that is your wish, say so, and I will end this
farce."


I don't want any Lannister, she wanted to say. I want Willas, I want Highgarden and the puppies and the
barge, and sons named Eddard and Bran and Rickon. But then she remembered what Dontos had told
her in the godswood. Tyrell or Lannister, it makes no matter, it's not me
they want, only my claim. "You are kind, my lord," she said, defeated. "I am a ward of the throne and
my duty is to marry as the king commands."
He studied her with his mismatched eyes. "I know I am not the sort of husband young girls dream of,
Sansa," he said softly, "but neither am I Joffrey."
"No," she said. "You were kind to me. I remember."
Tyrion offered her a thick, blunt-fingered hand. "Come, then. Let us do our duty."
So she put her hand in his, and he led her to the marriage altar, where the septon waited between the
Mother and the Father to join their lives together. She saw Dontos in his fool's motley, looking at her with
big round eyes. Ser Balon Swann and Ser Boros Blount were there in Kingsguard white, but not Ser
Loras. None of the Tyrells are here, she realized suddenly. But there were other witnesses aplenty; the
eunuch Varys, Ser Addarn Marbrand, Lord Philip Foote, Ser Bronn, Jalabhar Xho, a dozen others.
Lord Gyles was coughing, Lady Ermesande was at the breast, and Lady Tanda's pregnant daughter was
sobbing for no apparent reason. Let her sob, Sansa thought. Perhaps I shall do the same before this day
is done.
The ceremony passed as in a dream. Sansa did all that was required of her. There were prayers and
vows and singing, and tall candles burning, a hundred dancing lights that the tears in her eyes transformed
into a thousand. Thankfully no one seemed to notice that she was crying as she stood there, wrapped in
her father's colors; or if they did, they pretended not to. In what seemed no time at all, they came to the
changing of the cloaks.
As father of the realm, Joffrey took the place of Lord Eddard Stark. Sansa stood stiff as a lance as his
hands came over her shoulders to fumble with the clasp of her cloak. One of them brushed her breast
and lingered to give it a little squeeze. Then the clasp opened, and Joff swept her maiden's cloak away
with a kingly flourish and a grin.
His uncle's part went less well. The bride's cloak he held was huge and heavy, crimson velvet richly
worked with lions and bordered with gold satin and rubies. No one had thought to bring a stool,
however, and Tyrion stood a foot and a half shorter than his bride. As he moved behind her, Sansa felt a
sharp tug on her skirt. He wants me to kneel, she realized, blushing. She was mortified. It was not
supposed to be this way. She had dreamed of her wedding a thousand times, and always she had
pictured how her betrothed would stand behind her tall and strong, sweep the cloak of his protection
over her shoulders, and tenderly kiss her cheek as he leaned forward to fasten the clasp.
She felt another tug at her skirt, more insistent. I won't. Why should I spare his feelings, when no one
cares about mine?
The dwarf tugged at her a third time. Stubbornly she pressed her lips together and pretended not to
notice. Someone behind them tittered. The queen, she thought, but it didn't matter. They were all laughing
by then, Joffrey the loudest. "Dontos, down on your hands and knees," the king commanded. "My uncle
needs a boost to climb his bride."


And so it was that her lord husband cloaked her in the colors of House Lannister whilst standing on the
back of a fool.
When Sansa turned, the little man was gazing up at her, his mouth tight, his face as red as her cloak.
Suddenly she was ashamed of her stubbornness. She smoothed her skirts and knelt in front of him, so
their heads were on the same level. "With this kiss I pledge my love, and take you for my lord and
husband."
"With this kiss I pledge my love," the dwarf replied hoarsely, "and take you for my lady and wife." He
leaned forward, and their lips touched briefly.
He is so ugly, Sansa thought when his face was close to hers. He is even uglier than the Hound.
The septon raised his crystal high, so the rainbow light fell down upon them. "Here in the sight of gods
and men," he said, "I do solemnly proclaim Tyrion of House Lannister and Sansa of House Stark to be
man and wife, one flesh, one heart, one soul, now and forever, and cursed be the one who comes
between them."
She had to bite her lip to keep from sobbing.
The wedding feast was held in the Small Hall. There were perhaps fifty guests; Lannister retainers and
allies for the most part, joining those who had been at the wedding. And here Sansa found the Tyrells.
Margaery gave her such a sad look, and when the Queen of Thoms tottered in between Left and Right,
she never looked at her at all. Elinor, Alla, and Megga seemed determined not to know her. My friends,
Sansa thought bitterly.
Her husband drank heavily and ate but little. He listened whenever someone rose to make a toast and
sometimes nodded a curt acknowledgment, but otherwise his face might have been made of stone. The
feast seemed to go on forever, though Sansa tasted none of the food. She wanted it to be done, and yet
she dreaded its end. For after the feast would come the bedding. The men would carry her up to her
wedding bed, undressing her on the way and making rude jokes about the fate that awaited her between
the sheets, while the women did Tyrion the same honors. Only after they had been bundled naked into
bed would they be left alone, and even then the guests would stand outside the bridal chamber, shouting
ribald suggestions through the door. The bedding had seemed wonderfully wicked and exciting when
Sansa was a girl, but now that the moment was upon her she felt only dread. She did not think she could
bear for
them to rip off her clothes, and she was certain she would burst into tears at the first randy jape.
When the musicians began to play, she timidly laid her hand on Tyrion's and said, "My lord, should we
lead the dance?"
His mouth twisted. "I think we have already given them sufficent amusement for one day, don't you?"
"As you say, my lord." She pulled her hand back.
Joffrey and Margaery led in their place. How can a monster dance so beautifully? Sansa wondered. She
had often daydreamed of how she would dance at her wedding, with every eye upon her and her
handsome lord. in her dreams they had all been smiling. Not even my husband is smiling.
Other guests soon joined the king and his betrothed on the floor. Elinor danced with her young squire,


and Megga with Prince Tommen. Lady Merryweather, the Myrish beauty with the black hair and the big
dark eyes, spun so provocatively that every man in the hall was soon watching her. Lord and Lady Tyrell
moved more sedately. Ser Kevan Lannister begged the honor of Lady Janna. Fossoway, Lord Tyrell's
sister. Merry Crane took the floor with the exile prince Jalabhar Xho, gorgeous in his feathered finery.
Cersei Lannister partnered first Lord Redwyne, then Lord Rowan, and finally her own father, who
danced with smooth unsmiling grace.
Sansa sat with her hands in her lap, watching how the queen moved and laughed and tossed her blonde
curls. She charms them all, she thought dully. How I hate her. She looked away, to where Moon Boy
danced with Dontos.
"Lady Sansa." Ser Garlan Tyrell stood beside the dais. "Would you honor me? If your lord consents?"
The Imp's mismatched eyes narrowed. "My lady can dance with whomever she pleases."
Perhaps she ought to have remained beside her husband, but she wanted to dance so badly ... and Ser
Garlan was brother to Margaery, to Willas, to her Knight of Flowers. "I see why they name you Garlan
the Gallant, ser," she said, as she took his hand.
"My lady is gracious to say so. My brother Willas gave me that name, as it happens. To protect me."
"To protect you?" She gave him a puzzled look.
Ser Garlan laughed. "I was a plump little boy, I fear, and we do have an uncle called Garth the Gross.
So Willas struck first, though not before threatening me with Garlan the Greensick, Garlan the Galling,
and Garlan the Gargoyle."
It was so sweet and silly that Sansa had to laugh, despite everything. Afterward she was absurdly
grateful. Somehow the laughter made her hopeful again, if only for a little while. Smiling, she let the music
take
her, losing herself in the steps, in the sound of flute and pipes and harp, in the rhythm of the drum ... and
from time to time in Ser Garlan's arms, when the dance brought them together. "My lady wife is most
concerned for you," he said quietly, one such time.
"Lady Leonette is too sweet. Tell her I am well."
"A bride at her wedding should be more than well." His voice was not unkind. "You seemed close to
tears."
"Tears of joy, ser."
"Your eyes give the lie to your tongue." Ser Garlan turned her, drew her close to his side. "My lady, I
have seen how you look at my brother. Loras is valiant and handsome, and we all love him dearly ... but
your Imp will make a better husband. He is a bigger man than he seems, I think.,,
The music spun them apart before Sansa could think of a reply. It was Mace Tyrell opposite her,
red-faced and sweaty, and then Lord Merryweather, and then Prince Tommen. "I want to be married
too," said the plump little princeling, who was all of nine. "I'm taller than my uncle! "
"I know you are," said Sansa, before the partners changed again. Ser Kevan told her she was beautiful,


Jalabhar Xho said something she did not understand in the Summer Tongue, and Lord Redwyne wished
her many fat children and long years of joy. And then the dance brought her face-to-face with Joffrey.
Sansa stiffened as his hand touched hers, but the king tightened his grip and drew her closer. "You
shouldn't look so sad. My uncle is an ugly little thing, but you'll still have me."
"You're to marry Margaery!"
"A king can have other women. Whores. My father did. One of the Aegons did too. The third one, or
the fourth. He had lots of whores and lots of bastards." As they whirled to the music, Joff gave her a
moist kiss. "My uncle will bring you to my bed whenever I command it."
Sansa shook her head. "He won't."
"He will, or I'll have his head. That King Aegon, he had any woman he wanted, whether they were
married or no."
Thankfully, it was time to change again. Her legs had turned to wood, though, and Lord Rowan, Ser
Tallad, and Elinor's squire all must have thought her a very clumsy dancer. And then she was back with
Ser Garlan once more, and soon, blessedly, the dance was over.
Her relief was short-lived. No sooner had the music died than she heard Joffrey say, "It's time to bed
them! Let's get the clothes off her, and have a look at what the she-wolf's got to give my uncle!" Other
men took up the cry, loudly.
Her dwarf husband lifted his eyes slowly from his wine cup. "I'll have no bedding."
Joffrey seized Sansa's arm. "You will if I command it."
The Imp slammed his dagger down in the table, where it stood quivering. "Then you'll service your own
bride with a wooden prick. I'll geld you, I swear it."
A shocked silence fell. Sansa pulled away from Joffrey, but he had a grip on her, and her sleeve ripped.
No one even seemed to hear. Queen Cersei turned to her father. "Did you hear him?"
Lord Tywin rose from his seat. "I believe we can dispense with the bedding. Tyrion, I am certain you did
not mean to threaten the king's royal person."
Sansa saw a spasm of rage pass across her husband's face. "I misspoke," he said. "It was a bad jape,
sire."
"You threatened to geld me!" Joffrey said shrilly.
"I did, Your Grace," said Tyrion, "but only because I envied your royal manhood. Mine own is so small
and stunted." His face twisted into a leer. "And if you take my tongue, you will leave me no way at all to
pleasure this sweet wife you gave me."
Laughter burst from the lips of Ser Osmund Kettleblack. Someone else sniggered. But Joff did not
laugh, nor Lord Tywin. "Your Grace," he said, "my son is drunk, you can see that."
"I am," the Imp confessed, "but not so drunk that I cannot attend to my own bedding." He hopped down


from the dais and grabbed Sansa roughly. "Come, wife, time to smash your portcullis. I want to play
come-into-the-castle."
Red-faced, Sansa went with him from the Small Hall. What choice do I have? Tyrion waddled when he
walked, especially when he walked as quickly as he did now. The gods were merciful, and neither
Joffrey nor any of the others moved to follow.
For their wedding night, they had been granted the use of an airy bedchamber high in the Tower of the
Hand. Tyrion kicked the door shut behind them. "There is a flagon of good Arbor gold on the sideboard,
Sansa. Will you be so kind as to pour me a cup?"
"Is that wise, my lord?"
"Nothing was ever wiser. I am not truly drunk, you see. But I mean to be."
Sansa filled a goblet for each of them. It will be easier if I am drunk as well. She sat on the edge of the
great curtained bed and drained half her cup in three long swallows. No doubt it was very flne wine, but
she was too nervous to taste it. It made her head swim. "Would you have me undress, my lord?"
"Tyrion." He cocked his head. "My name is Tyrion, Sansa."
"Tyrion. My lord. Should I take off my gown, or do you want to undress me?" She took another
swallow of wine.
The imp turned away from her. "The first time I wed, there was us and a drunken septon, and some pigs
to bear witness. We ate one of our witnesses at our wedding feast. Tysha fed me crackling and I licked
the grease off her fingers, and we were laughing when we fell into bed."
"You were wed before? I ... I had forgotten."
"You did not forget. You never knew."
"Who was she, my lord?" Sansa was curious despite herself.
"Lady Tysha." His mouth twisted. "Of House Silverfist. Their arms have one gold coin and a hundred
silver, upon a bloody sheet. Ours was a very short marriage ... as befits a very short man, I suppose."
Sansa stared down at her hands and said nothing.
"How old are you, Sansa?" asked Tyrion, after a moment.
"Thirteen," she said, "when the moon turns."
"Gods have mercy." The dwarf took another swallow of wine. "Well, talk won't make you older. Shall
we get on with this, my lady? if it please you?"
"It will please me to please my lord husband."
That seemed to anger him. "You hide behind courtesy as if it were a castle wall."
"Courtesy is a lady's armor," Sansa said. Her septa had always told her that.


"I am your husband. You can take off your armor now."
"And my clothing?"
"That too." He waved his wine cup at her. "My lord father has commanded me to consummate this
marriage."
Her hands trembled as she began fumbling at her clothes. She had ten thumbs instead of fingers, and all
of them were broken. Yet somehow she managed the laces and buttons, and her cloak and gown and
girdle and undersilk slid to the floor, until finally she was stepping out of her smallclothes. Gooseprickles
covered her arms and legs. She kept her eyes on the floor, too shy to look at him, but when she was
done she glanced up and found him staring. There was hunger in his green eye, it seemed to her, and fury
in the black. Sansa did not know which scared her more.
"You're a child," he said.
She covered her breasts with her hands. "I've flowered."
"A child," he repeated, "but I want you. Does that frighten you, Sansa?"
"Yes."
"Me as well. I know I am ugly -
"No, my -if
He pushed himself to his feet. "Don't lie, Sansa. I am malformed, scarred, and small, but. . . " she could
see him groping ". . . abed, when the candles are blown out, I am made no worse than other men. In the
dark, I am the Knight of Flowers." He took a draught of wine. "I am generous. Loyal to those who are
loyal to me. I've proven I'm no craven. And I am cleverer than most, surely wits count for something. I
can even be kind. Kindness is not a habit with us Lannisters, I fear, but I know I have some somewhere.
I could be ... I could be good to you."
He is as frightened as I am, Sansa realized. Perhaps that should have made her feel more kindly toward
him, but it did not. All she felt was pity, and pity was death to desire. He was looking at her, waiting for
her to say something, but all her words had withered. She could only stand there trembling.
When he finally realized that she had no answer for him, Tyrion Lannister drained the last of his wine. "I
understand," he said bitterly. "Get in the bed, Sansa. We need to do our duty."
She climbed onto the featherbed, conscious of his stare. A scented beeswax candle burned on the
bedside table and rose petals had been strewn between the sheets. She had started to pull up a blanket
to cover herself when she heard him say, "No."
The cold made her shiver, but she obeyed. Her eyes closed, and she waited. After a moment she heard
the sound of her husband pulling off his boots, and the rustle of clothing as he undressed himself. When
he hopped up on the bed and put his hand on her breast, Sansa could not help but shudder. She lay with
her eyes closed, every muscle tense, dreading what might come next. Would he touch her again? Kiss
her? Should she open her legs for him now? She did not know what was expected of her.


"Sansa." The hand was gone. "Open your eyes."
She had promised to obey; she opened her eyes. He was sitting by her feet, naked. Where his legs
joined, his man's staff poked up stiff and hard from a thicket of coarse yellow hair, but it was the only
thing about him that was straight.
"My lady," Tyrion said, "you are lovely, make no mistake, but ... I cannot do this. My father be damned.
We will wait. The turn of a moon, a year, a season, however long it takes. Until you have come to know
me better, and perhaps to trust me a little." His smile might have been meant to be reassuring, but without
a nose it only made him look more grotesque and sinister.
Look at him, Sansa told herself, look at your husband, at all of him, Septa Mordane said all men are
beautiful, find his beauty, try. She stared at the stunted legs, the swollen brutish brow, the green eye and
the black one, the raw stump of his nose and crooked pink scar, the coarse tangle of black and gold hair
that passed for his beard. Even his manhood was ugly, thick and veined, with a bulbous purple head. This
is not right, this is not fair, how have I sinned that the gods would do this to me, how?
"On my honor as a Lannister," the Imp said, "I will not touch you until you want me to."
it took all the courage that was in her to look in those mismatched eyes and say, "And if I never want
you to, my lord?"
His mouth jerked as if she had slapped him. "Never?"
Her neck was so tight she could scarcely nod.
"Why," he said, "that is why the gods made whores for imps like me." He closed his short blunt fingers
into a fist, and climbed down off the bed.
Chapter 29
ARYA
Stoney Sept was the biggest town Arya had seen since King's Landing, and Harwin said her father had
won a famous battle here.
"The Mad King's men had been hunting Robert, trying to catch him before he could rejoin your father,"
he told her as they rode toward the gate. "He was wounded, being tended by some friends, when Lord
Connington the Hand took the town with a mighty force and started searching house by house. Before
they could find him, though, Lord Eddard and your grandfather came down on the town and stormed the
walls. Lord Connington fought back fierce. They battled in the streets and alleys, even on the rooftops,
and all the septons rang their bells so the smallfolk would know to lock their doors. Robert came out of
hiding to join the fight when the bells began to ring. He slew six men that day, they say. One was Myles
Mooton, a famous knight who'd been Prince Rhaegar's squire. He would have slain the Hand too, but the
battle never brought them together. Connington wounded your grandfather Tully sore, though, and killed
Ser Denys Arryn, the darling of the Vale. But when he saw the day was lost, he flew off as fast as the


griffins on his shield. The Battle of the Bells, they called it after. Robert always said your father won it, not
him."
More recent battles had been fought here as well, Arya thought from the look of the place. The town
gates were made of raw new wood; outside the walls a pile of charred planks remained to tell what had
happened to the old ones.
Stoney Sept was closed up tight, but when the captain of the gate saw
who they were, he opened a sally port for them. "How you fixed for food?" Tom asked as they entered.
"Not so bad as we were. The Huntsman brought in a flock o' sheep, and there's been some trading
across the Blackwater. The harvest wasn't burned south o' the river. Course, there's plenty want to take
what we got. Wolves one day, Mummers the next. Them that's not looking for food are looking for
plunder, or women to rape, and them that's not out for gold or wenches are looking for the bloody
Kingslayer. Talk is, he slipped right through Lord Edmure's fingers."
"Lord Edmure?" Lem frowned. "Is Lord Hoster dead, then?"
"Dead or dying. Think Lannister might be making for the Blackwater? It's the quickest way to King's
Landing, the Huntsman swears." The captain did not wait for an answer. "He took his dogs out for a sniff
round. If Ser Jaime's hereabouts, they'll find him. I've seen them dogs rip bears apart. Think they'll like
the taste of lion blood?"
"A chewed-up corpse's no good to no one," said Lem. "The Huntsman bloody well knows that, too."
"When the westermen came through they raped the Huntsman's wife and sister, put his crops to the
torch, ate half his sheep, and killed the other half for spite. Killed six dogs too, and threw the carcasses
down his well. A chewed-up corpse would be plenty good enough for him, I'd say. Me as well."
"He'd best not," said Lem. "That's all I got to say. He'd best not, and you're a bloody fool."
Arya rode between Harwin and Anguy as the outlaws moved down the streets where her father once
had fought. She could see the sept on its hill, and below it a stout strong holdfast of grey stone that
looked much too small for such a big town. But every third house they passed was a blackened shell, and
she saw no people. "Are all the townfolk dead? "
"Only shy." Anguy pointed out two bowmen on a roof, and some boys with sooty faces crouched in the
rubble of an alehouse. Farther on, a baker threw open a shuttered window and shouted down to Lem.
The sound of his voice brought more people out of hiding, and Stoney Sept slowly seemed to come to
life around them.
In the market square at the town's heart stood a fountain in the shape of a leaping trout, spouting water
into a shallow pool. Women were filling pails and flagons there. A few feet away, a dozen iron cages
hung from creaking wooden posts. Crow cages, Arya knew. The crows were mostly outside the cages,
splashing in the water or perched atop the bars; inside were men. Lem reined up scowling. "What's this,
now?"
"Justice," answered a woman at the fountain.
"What, did you run short o' hempen rope?"


"Was this done at Ser Wilbert's decree?" asked Tom.
A man laughed bitterly. "The lions killed Ser Wilbert a year ago. His sons are all off with the Young
Wolf, getting fat in the west. You think they give a damn for the likes of us? It was the Mad Huntsman
caught these wolves."
Wolves. Arya went cold. Robb's men, and my father's. She felt drawn toward the cages. The bars
allowed so little room that prisoners could neither sit nor turn; they stood naked, exposed to sun and
wind and rain. The first three cages held dead men. Carrion crows had eaten out their eyes, yet the
empty sockets seemed to follow her. The fourth man in the row stirred as she passed. Around his mouth
his ragged beard was thick with blood and flies. They exploded when he spoke, buzzing around his head.
"Water." The word was a croak. "Please ... water,.."
The man in the next cage opened his eyes at the sound. "Here," he said. "Here, me." An old man, he
was; his beard was grey and his scalp was bald and mottled brown with age.
There was another dead man beyond the old one, a big red-bearded man with a rotting grey bandage
covering his left ear and part of his temple. But the worst thing was between his legs, where nothing
remained but a crusted brown hole crawling with maggots. Farther down was a fat man. The crow cage
was so cruelly narrow it was hard to see how they'd ever gotten him inside. The iron dug painfully into his
belly, squeezing bulges out between the bars. Long days baking in the sun had burned him a painful red
from head to heel. When he shifted his weight, his cage creaked and swayed, and Arya could see pale
white stripes where the bars had shielded his flesh from the sun.
"Whose men were you?" she asked them.
At the sound of her voice, the fat man opened his eyes. The skin around them was so red they looked
like boiled eggs floating in a dish of blood. "Water ... a drink..."
"Whose?" she said again.
"Pay them no mind, boy," the townsman told her. "They're none o' your concern. Ride on by."
"What did they do?" she asked him.
"They put eight people to the sword at Tumbler's Falls," he said. "They wanted the Kingslayer, but he
wasn't there so they did some rape and murder." He jerked a thumb toward the corpse with maggots
where his manhood ought to be. "That one there did the raping. Now move along."
"A swallow," the fat one called down. "Ha' mercy, boy, a swallow." The old one slid an arm up to grasp
the bars. The motion made his cage swing violently. "Water," gasped the one with the flies in his beard.
She looked at their filthy hair and scraggly beards and reddened eyes,
at their dry, cracked, bleeding lips. Wolves, she thought again. Like me. Was this her pack? How could
they be Robb's men? She wanted to hit them. She wanted to hurt them. She wanted to cry. They all
seemed to be looking at her, the living and the dead alike. The old man had squeezed three fingers out
between the bars. "Water," he said, "water."
Arya swung down from her horse. They can't hurt me, they're dying. She took her cup from her bedroll


and went to the fountain. "What do you think you're doing, boy?" the townsman snapped. "They're no
concern o' yours." She raised the cup to the fish's mouth. The water splashed across her fingers and
down her sleeve, but Arya did not move until the cup was brimming over. When she turned back toward
the cages, the townsman moved to stop her. "You get away from them, boy -
"She's a girl," said Harwin. "Leave her be."
"Aye," said Lem. "Lord Beric don't hold with caging men to die of thirst. Why don't you hang them
decent?"
"There was nothing decent 'bout them things they did at Tumbler's Falls," the townsman growled right
back at him.
The bars were too narrow to pass a cup through, but Harwin and Gendry offered her a leg up. She
planted a foot in Harwin's cupped hands, vaulted onto Gendry's shoulders, and grabbed the bars on top
of the cage. The fat man turned his face up and pressed his cheek to the iron, and Arya poured the water
over him. He sucked at it eagerly and let it run down over his head and cheeks and hands, and then he
licked the dampness off the bars. He would have licked Arya's fingers if she hadn't snatched them back.
By the time she served the other two the same, a crowd had gathered to watch her. "The Mad Huntsman
will hear of this," a man threatened. "He won't like it. No, he won't."
"He'll like this even less, then." Anguy strung his longbow, slid an arrow from his quiver, nocked, drew,
loosed. The fat man shuddered as the shaft drove up between his chins, but the cage would not let him
fall. Two more arrows ended the other two northmen. The only sound in the market square was the
splash of falling water and the buzzing of flies.
Valar morghulis, Arya thought.
On the east side of the market square stood a modest inn with whitewashed walls and broken windows.
Half its roof had burnt off recently, but the hole had been patched over. Above the door hung a wooden
shingle painted as a peach, with a big bite taken out of it. They dismounted at the stables sitting
catty-comer, and Greenbeard bellowed for grooms.
The buxom red-haired innkeep howled with pleasure at the sight of them, then promptly set to tweaking
them. "Greenbeard, is it? Or Greybeard? Mother take mercy, when did you get so old? Lem, is that
you?
Still wearing the same ratty cloak, are you? I know why you never wash it, I do. You're afraid all the
piss will wash out and we'll see you're really a knight o' the Kingsguard! And Tom o' Sevens, you randy
old goat! You come to see that son o' yours? Well, you're too late, he's off riding with that bloody
Huntsman. And don't tell me he's not yours!"
"He hasn't got my voice," Tom protested weakly.
"He's got your nose, though. Aye, and t'other parts as well, to hear the girls talk." She spied Gendry
then, and pinched him on the check. "Look at this fine young ox. Wait till Alyce sees those arms. Oh, and
he blushes like a maid, too. Well, Alyce will fix that for you, boy, see if she don't."
Arya had never seen Gendry turn so red. "Tansy, you leave the Bull alone, he's a good lad," said Tom
Sevenstrings. "All we need from you is safe beds for a night."


"Speak for yourself, singer." Anguy slid his arm around a strapping young serving girl as freckly as he
was.
"Beds we got," said red-haired Tansy. "There's never been no lack o' beds at the Peach. But you'll all
climb in a tub first. Last time you lot stayed under my roof you left your fleas behind." She poked
Greenbeard in the chest. "And yours was green, too. You want food?"
"If you can spare it, we won't say no," Tom conceded.
"Now when did you ever say no to anything, Tom?" the woman hooted. "I'll roast some mutton for your
friends, and an old dry rat for you. It's more than you deserve, but if you gargle me a song or three, might
be I'll weaken. I always pity the afflicted. Come on, come on. Cass, Lanna, put some kettles on. Jyzene,
help me get the clothes off them, we'll need to boil those too."
She made good on all her threats. Arya tried to tell them that she'd been bathed twice at Acorn Hall, not
a fortnight past, but the red-haired woman was having none of it. Two serving wenches carried her up the
stairs bodily, arguing about whether she was a girl or a boy. The one called Helly won, so the other had
to fetch the hot water and scrub Arya's back with a stiff bristly brush that almost took her skin off. Then
they stole all the clothes that Lady Smallwood had given her and dressed her up like one of Sansa's dolls
in linen and lace. But at least when they were done she got to go down and eat.
As she sat in the common room in her stupid girl clothes, Arya remembered what Syrio Forel had told
her, the trick of looking and seeing what was there. When she looked, she saw more serving wenches
than any inn could want, and most of them young and comely. And come evenfall, lots of men started
coming and going at the Peach. They did not linger long in the common room, not even when Tom took
out his woodharp and began to sing "Six Maids in a Pool." The wooden steps
were old and steep, and creaked something fierce whenever one of the men took a girl upstairs. "I bet
this is a brothel," she whispered to Gendry.
"You don't even know what a brothel is."
"I do so," she insisted. "It's like an inn, with girls."
He was turning red again. "What are you doing here, then?" he demanded. "A brothel's no fit place for
no bloody highborn lady, everybody knows that."
one of the girls sat down on the bench beside him. "Who's a highborn lady? The little skinny one?" She
looked at Arya and laughed. "I'm a king's daughter myself."
Arya knew she was being mocked. "You are not."
"Well, I might be." When the girl shrugged, her gown slipped off one shoulder. "They say King Robert
fucked my mother when he hid here, back before the battle. Not that he didn't have all the other girls too,
but Leslyn says he liked my ma the best."
The girl did have hair like the old king's, Arya thought; a great thick mop of it, as black as coal. That
doesn't mean anything, though. Gendry has the same kind of hair too. Lots of people have black hair.
"I'm named Bella," the girl told Gendry. "For the battle. I bet I could ring your bell, too. You want to?"


"No," he said gruffly.
"I bet you do." She ran a hand along his arm. "I don't cost nothing to friends of Thoros and the lightning
lord."
"No, I said." Gendry rose abruptly and stalked away from the table out into the night.
Bella turned to Arya. "Don't he like girls?"
Arya shrugged. "He's just stupid. He likes to polish helmets and beat on swords with hammers."
"Oh." Bella tugged her gown back over her shoulder and went to talk with Jack-Be-Lucky. Before long
she was sitting in his lap, giggling and drinking wine from his cup. Greenbeard had two girls, one on each
knee. Anguy had vanished with his freckle-faced wench, and Lem was gone as well. Tom Sevenstrings
sat by the fire, singing, "The Maids that Bloom in Spring." Arya sipped at the cup of watered wine the
red-haired woman had allowed her, listening. Across the square the dead men were rotting in their crow
cages, but inside the Peach everyone was jolly. Except it seemed to her that some of them were laughing
too hard, somehow.
It would have been a good time to sneak away and steal a horse, but Arya couldn't see how that would
help her. She could only ride as far as the city gates. That captain would never let me pass, and if he did,
Harwin would come after me, or that Huntsman with his dogs. She wished she had her map, so she could
see how far Stoney Sept was from Riverrun.
By the time her cup was empty, Arya was yawning. Gendry hadn't come back. Tom Sevenstrings was
singing "Two Hearts that Beat as One," and kissing a different girl at the end of every verse. In the comer
by the window Lem and Harwin sat talking to red-haired Tansy in low voices. "... spent the night in
Jaime's cell," she heard the woman say. "Her and this other wench, the one who slew Renly. All three o'
them together, and come the mom Lady Catelyn cut him loose for love." She gave a throaty chuckle.
It's not true, Arya thought. She never would. She felt sad and angry and lonely, all at once.
An old man sat down beside her. "Well, aren't you a pretty little peach?" His breath smelled near as foul
as the dead men in the cages, and his little pig eyes were crawling up and down her. "Does my sweet
peach have a name?"
For half a heartbeat she forgot who she was supposed to be. She wasn't any peach, but she couldn't be
Arya Stark either, not here with some smelly drunk she did not know. "I'm . . . "
"She's my sister." Gendry put a heavy hand on the old man's shoulder, and squeezed. "Leave her be."
The man turned, spoiling for a quarrel, but when he saw Gendry's size he thought better of it. "Your
sister, is she? What kind of brother are you? Id never bring no sister of mine to the Peach, that I
wouldn't." He got up from the bench and moved off muttering, in search of a new friend.
"Why did you say that?" Arya hopped to her feet. "You're not my brother."
"That's right," he said angrily. "I'm too bloody lowbom to be kin to m'lady high."
Arya was taken aback by the fury in his voice. "That's not the way I meant it."


"Yes it is." He sat down on the bench, cradling a cup of wine between his hands. "Go away. I want to
drink this wine in peace. Then maybe I'll go find that black-haired girl and ring her bell for her."
"But ... " "I said, go away. M'lady."
Arya whirled and left him there. A stupid bullheaded bastard boy, that's all he is. He could ring all the
bells he wanted, it was nothing to her.
Their sleeping room was at the top of the stairs, under the eaves. Maybe the Peach had no lack of beds,
but there was only one to spare for the likes of them. It was a big bed, though. It filled the whole room,
just about, and the musty straw-stuffed mattress looked large enough for all of them. just now, though,
she had it to herself. Her real clothes were hanging from a peg on the wall, between Gendry's stuff and
Lem's. Arya
took off the linen and lace, pulled her tunic over her head, climbed up into the bed, and burrowed under
the blankets. "Queen Cersei," she whispered into the pillow. "King Joffrey, Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn. Dunsen,
Raff, and Polliver. The Tickler, the Hound, and Ser Gregor the Mountain." She liked to mix up the order
of the names sometimes. It helped her remember who they were and what they'd done. Maybe some of
them are dead, she thought. Maybe they're in iron cages someplace, and the crows are picking out their
eyes.
Sleep came as quick as she closed her eyes. She dreamed of wolves that night, stalking through a wet
wood with the smell of rain and rot and blood thick in the air. Only they were good smells in the dream,
and Arya knew she had nothing to fear. She was strong and swift and fierce, and her pack was all
around her, her brothers and her sisters. They ran down a frightened horse together, tore its throat out,
and feasted. And when the moon broke through the clouds, she threw back her head and howled.
But when the day came, she woke to the barking of dogs.
Arya sat up yawning. Gendry was stirring on her left and Lem Lemoncloak snoring loudly to her right,
but the baying outside all but drowned him out. There must be half a hundred dogs out there. She
crawled from under the blankets and hopped over Lem, Tom, and Jack-BeLucky to the window. When
she opened the shutters wide, wind and wet and cold all came flooding in together. The day was grey
and overcast. Down below, in the square, the dogs were barking, running in circles, growling and
howling. There was a pack of them, great black mastiffs and lean wolfhounds and black-and-white
sheepdogs and kinds Arya did not know, shaggy brindled beasts with long yellow teeth. Between the inn
and the fountain, a dozen riders sat astride their horses, watching the townsmen open the fat man's cage
and tug his arm until his swollen corpse spilled out onto the ground. The dogs were at him at once, tearing
chunks of flesh off his bones.
Arya heard one of the riders laugh. "Here's your new castle, you bloody Lannister bastard," he said. "A
little snug for the likes o' you, but we'll squeeze you in, never fret." Beside him a prisoner sat sullen, with
coils of hempen rope tight around his wrists. Some of the townsmen were throwing dung at him, but he
never flinched. "You'll rot in them cages," his captor was shouting. "The crows will be picking out your
eyes while we're spending all that good Lannister gold o' yours! And when them crows are done, we'll
send what's left o' you to your bloody brother. Though I doubt he'll know you."
The noise had woken half the Peach. Gendry squeezed into the window beside Arya, and Tom stepped
up behind them naked as his name day. "What's all that bloody shouting?" Lem complained from bed. "A
man's trying to get some bloody sleep."


"Where's Greenbeard?" Tom asked him.
"Abed with Tansy," Lem said. "Why?"
"Best find him. Archer too. The Mad Huntsman's come back, with another man for the cages."
"Lannister," said Arya. "I heard him say Lannister."
"Have they caught the Kingslayer?" Gendry wanted to know.
Down in the square, a thrown stone caught the captive on the cheek, turning his head. Not the
Kingslayer, Arya thought, when she saw his face. The gods had heard her prayers after all.
Chapter 30
JON
Ghost was gone when the wildlings led their horses from the cave. Did he understand about Castle
Black? Jon took a breath of the crisp morning air and allowed himself to hope. The eastern sky was pink
near the horizon and pale grey higher up. The Sword of the Morning still hung in the south, the bright
white star in its hilt blazing like a diamond in the dawn, but the blacks and greys of the darkling forest
were turning once again to greens and golds, reds and russets. And above the soldier pines and oaks and
ash and sentinels stood the Wall, the ice pale and glimmering beneath the dust and dirt that pocked its
surface.
The Magnar sent a dozen men riding west and a dozen more east, to climb the highest hills they could
find and watch for any sign of rangers in the wood or riders on the high ice. The Therms carried
bronze-banded warhorns to give warning should the Watch be sighted. The other wildlings fell in behind
Jarl, Jon and Ygritte with the rest. This was to be the young raider's hour of glory.
The Wall was often said to stand seven hundred feet high, but Jarl had found a place where it was both
higher and lower. Before them, the ice rose sheer from out of the trees like some immense cliff, crowned
by wind-carved battlements that loomed at least eight hundred feet high, perhaps nine hundred in spots.
But that was deceptive, Jon realized as they drew closer. Brandon the Builder had laid his huge
foundation blocks along the heights wherever feasible, and hereabouts the hills rose wild and rugged.
He had once heard his uncle Benjen say that the Wall was a sword
east of Castle Black, but a snake to the west. It was true. Sweeping in over one huge humped hill, the
ice dipped down into a valley, climbed the knife edge of a long granite ridgeline for a league or more, ran
along a jagged crest, dipped again into a valley deeper still, and then rose higher and higher, leaping from
hill to hill as far as the eye could see, into the mountainous west.
Jarl had chosen to assault the stretch of ice along the ridge. Here, though the top of the Wall loomed
eight hundred feet above the forest floor, a good third of that height was earth and stone rather than ice;
the slope was too steep for their horses, almost as difficult a scramble as the Fist of the First Men, but
still vastly easier to ascend than the sheer vertical face of the Wall itself. And the ridge was densely


wooded as well, offering easy concealment. Once brothers in black had gone out every day with axes to
cut back the encroaching trees, but those days were long past, and here the forest grew right up to the
ice.
The day promised to be damp and cold, and damper and colder by the Wall, beneath those tons of ice.
The closer they got, the more the Therms held back. They have never seen the Wall before, not even the
Magnar, Jon realized. It frightens them. In the Seven Kingdoms it was said that the Wall marked the end
of the world. That is true for them as well. it was all in where you stood.
And where do I stand? Jon did not know. To stay with Ygritte, he would need to become a wildling
heart and soul. if he abandoned her to return to his duty, the Magnar might cut her heart out. And if he
took her with him ... assuming she would go, which was far from certain ... well, he could scarcely bring
her back to Castle Black to live among the brothers. A deserter and a wildling could expect no welcome
anywhere in the Seven Kingdoms. We could go look for Gendel's children, I suppose. Though they'd be
more like to eat us than to take us in.
The Wall did not awe Jarl's raiders, Jon saw. They have done this before, every man of them. Jarl called
out names when they dismounted beneath the ridge, and eleven gathered round him. All were young. The
oldest could not have been more than five-and-twenty, and two of the ten were younger than Jon. Every
one was lean and hard, though; they had a look of sinewy strength that reminded him of Stonesnake, the
brother the Halfhand had sent off afoot when Rattleshirt was hunting them.
In the very shadow of the Wall the wildlings made ready, winding thick coils of hempen rope around one
shoulder and down across their chests, and lacing on queer boots of supple doeskin. The boots had
spikes jutting from the toes; iron, for Jarl and two others, bronze for some, but most often jagged bone.
Small stone-headed hammers hung from one hip, a leathern bag of stakes from the other. Their ice axes
were antlers with
sharpened tines, bound to wooden hafts with strips of hide. The eleven climbers sorted themselves into
three teams of four; Jarl himself made the twelfth man. "Mance promises swords for every man of the first
team to reach the top," he told them, his breath misting in the cold air. "Southron swords of castle-forged
steel. And your name in the song he'll make of this, that too. What more could a free man ask? Up, and
the Others take the hindmost!"
The Others take them all, thought Jon, as he watched them scramble up the steep slope of the ridge and
vanish beneath the trees. It would not be the first time wildlings had scaled the Wall, not even the hundred
and first. The patrols stumbled on climbers two or three times a year, and rangers sometimes came on the
broken corpses of those who had fallen. Along the east coast the raiders most often built boats to slip
across the Bay of Seals. in the west they would descend into the black depths of the Gorge to make their
way around the Shadow Tower. But in between the only way to defeat the Wall was to go over it, and
many a raider had. Fewer come back, though, he thought with a certain grim pride. Climbers must of
necessity leave their mounts behind, and many younger, greener raiders began by taking the first horses
they found. Then a hue and cry would go up, ravens would fly, and as often as not the Night's Watch
would hunt them down and hang them before they could get back with their plunder and stolen women.
Jarl would not make that mistake, Jon knew, but he wondered about Styr. The Magnar is a ruler, not a
raider. He may not know how the game is played.
"There they are," Ygritte said, and Jon glanced up to see the first climber emerge above the treetops. It
was Jarl. He had found a sentinel tree that leaned against the Wall, and led his men up the trunk to get a
quicker start. The wood should never have been allowed to creep so close. They're three hundred feet
up, and they haven't touched the ice itself yet.


He watched the wildling move carefully from wood to Wall, hacking out a handhold with short sharp
blows of his ice axe, then swinging over. The rope around his waist tied him to the second man in line, still
edging up the tree. Step by slow step, Jarl moved higher, kicking out toeholds with his spiked boots
when there were no natural ones to be found. When he was ten feet above the sentinel, he stopped upon
a narrow icy ledge, slung his axe from his belt, took out his hammer, and drove an iron stake into a cleft.
The second man moved onto the Wall behind him while the third was scrambling to the top of the tree.
The other two teams had no happily placed trees to give them a leg up, and before long the Therms;
were wondering whether they had gotten lost climbing the ridge. Jarl's party were all on the Wall and
eighty feet up before the leading climbers from the other groups came into view.
The teams were spaced a good twenty yards apart. Jarl's four were in the center. To the right of them
was a team headed up by Grigg the Goat, whose long blond braid made him easy to spot from below.
To the left a very thin man named Errok led the climbers.
"So slow," the Magnar complained loudly, as he watched them edge their way upward. "Has he
forgotten the crows? He should climb faster, afore we are discovered."
Jon had to hold his tongue. He remembered the Skirling Pass all too well, and the moonlight climb he'd
made with Stonesnake. He had swallowed his heart a half-dozen times that night, and by the end his arms
and legs had been aching and his fingers were half frozen. And that was stone, not ice. Stone was solid.
Ice was treacherous stuff at the best of times, and on a day like this, when the Wall was weeping, the
warmth of a climber's hand might be enough to melt it. The huge blocks could be frozen rock-hard inside,
but their outer surface would be slick, with runnels of water trickling down, and patches of rotten ice
where the air had gotten in. Whatever else the wildlings are, they're brave.
All the same, Jon found himself hoping that Styr's fears proved well founded. If the gods are good, a
patrol will chance by and put an end to this. "No wall can keep you safe," his father had told him once, as
they walked the walls of Winterfell. "A wall is only as strong as the men who defend it." The wildlings
might have a hundred and twenty men, but four defenders would be enough to see them off, with a few
well-placed arrows and perhaps a pail of stones.
No defenders appeared, however; not four, not even one. The sun climbed the sky and the wildlings
climbed the Wall. Jarl's four remained well ahead till noon, when they hit a pitch of bad ice. Jarl had
looped his rope around a wind-carved pinnace and was using it to support his weight when the whole
jagged thing suddenly crumbled and came crashing down, and him with it. Chunks of ice as big as a
man's head bombarded the three below, but they clung to the handholds and the stakes held, and Jarl
jerked to a sudden halt at the end of the rope.
By the time his team had recovered from that mischance, Grigg the Goat had almost drawn even with
them. Errok's four remained well behind. The face where they were climbing looked smooth and
unpitted, covered with a sheet of icemelt that glistened wetly where the sun brushed it. Grigg's section
was darker to the eye, with more obvious features; long horizontal ledges where a block had been
imperfectly positioned atop the block below, cracks and crevices, even chimneys along the vertical joins,
where wind and water had eaten holes large enough for a man to hide in.
Jarl soon had his men edging upward again. His four and Grigg's moved almost side by side, with
Errok's fifty feet below. Deerhom axes chopped
and hacked, sending showers of glittery shards cascading down onto the trees. Stone hammers pounded


stakes deep into the ice to serve as anchors for the ropes; the iron stakes ran out before they were
halfway up, and after that the climbers used horn and sharpened bone. And the men kicked, driving the
spikes on their boots against the hard unyielding ice again and again and again and again to make one
foothold. Their legs must be numb, Jon thought by the fourth hour. How long can they keep on with that?
He watched as restless as the Magnar, listening for the distant moan of a Therm warhorn. But the horns
stayed silent, and there was no sign of the Night's Watch.
By the sixth hour, Jarl had moved ahead of Grigg the Goat again, and his men were widening the gap.
"The Mance's pet must want a sword," the Magnar said, shading his eyes. The sun was high in the sky,
and the upper third of the Wall was a crystalline blue from below, reflecting so brilliantly that it hurt the
eyes to look on it. Jarl's four and Grigg's were all but lost in the glare, though Errok's team was still in
shadow. Instead of moving upward they were edging their way sideways at about five hundred feet,
making for a chimney. Jon was watching them inch along when he heard the sound - a sudden crack that
seemed to roll along the ice, followed by a shout of alarm. And then the air was full of shards and shrieks
and falling men, as a sheet of ice a foot thick and fifty feet square broke off from the Wall and came
tumbling, crumbling, rumbling, sweeping all before it. Even down at the foot of the ridge, some chunks
came spinning through the trees and rolling down the slope. Jon grabbed Ygritte and pulled her down to
shield her, and one of the Therms was struck in the face by a chunk that broke his nose.
And when they looked up Jarl and his team were gone. Men, ropes, stakes, all gone; nothing remained
above six hundred feet. There was a wound in the Wall where the climbers had clung half a heartbeat
before, the ice within as smooth and white as polished marble and shining in the sun. Far far below there
was a faint red smear where someone had smashed against a frozen pinnace.
The Wall defends itself, Jon thought as he pulled Ygritte back to her feet.
They found Jarl in a tree, impaled upon a splintered branch and still roped to the three men who lay
broken beneath him. One was still alive, but his legs and spine were shattered, and most of his ribs as
well. "Mercy," he said when they came upon him. One of the Therms smashed his head in with a big
stone mace. The Magnar gave orders, and his men began to gather fuel for a pyre.
The dead were burning when Grigg the Goat reached the top of the Wall. By the time Errok's four had
joined them, nothing remained of Jarl and his team but bone and ash.
The sun had begun to sink by then, so the climbers wasted little time. They unwound the long coils of
hemp they'd had looped around their chests, tied them all together, and tossed down one end. The
thought of trying to climb five hundred feet up that rope filled Jon with dread, but Mance had planned
better than that. The raiders Jarl had left below uncasked a huge ladder, with rungs of woven hemp as
thick as a man's arm, and tied it to the climbers' rope. Errok and Grigg and their men grunted and
heaved, pulled it up, staked it to the top, then lowered the rope again to haul up a second ladder. There
were five altogether.
When all of them were in place, the Magnar shouted a brusque command in the Old Tongue, and five of
his Therms started up together. Even with the ladders, it was no easy climb. Ygritte watched them
struggle for a while. "I hate this Wall," she said in a low angry voice. "Can you feel how cold it is?"
"It's made of ice," Jon pointed out.
"You know nothing, Jon Snow. This wall is made o' blood."
Nor had it drunk its fill. By sunset, two of the Therms had fallen from the ladder to their deaths, but they


were the last. It was near midnight before Jon reached the top. The stars were out again, and Ygritte was
trembling from the climb. "I almost fell," she said, with tears in her eyes. "Twice. Thrice. The Wall was
trying t' shake me off, I could feel it." one of the tears broke free and trickled slowly down her cheek.
"The worst is behind us." Jon tried to sound confident. "Don't be frightened." He tried to put an arm
around her.
Ygritte slammed the heel of her hand into his chest, so hard it stung even through his layers of wool, mail,
and boiled leather. "I wasn't frightened. You know nothing, Jon Snow."
"Why are you crying, then?"
"Not for fear!" She kicked savagely at the ice beneath her with a heel, chopping out a chunk. "I'm crying
because we never found the Horn of Winter. We opened half a hundred graves and let all those shades
loose in the world, and never found the Horn of Joramun to bring this cold thing down!"
Chapter 31
JAIME
His hand burned.
Still, still, long after they had snuffed out the torch they'd used to sear his bloody stump, days after, he
could still feel the fire lancing up his arm, and his fingers twisting in the flames, the fingers he no longer
had.
He had taken wounds before, but never like this. He had never known there could be such pain.
Sometimes, unbidden, old prayers bubbled from his lips, prayers he learned as a child and never thought
of since, prayers he had first prayed with Cersei kneeling beside him in the sept at Casterly Rock.
Sometimes he even wept, until he heard the Mummers laughing. Then he made his eyes go dry and his
heart go dead, and prayed for his fever to bum away his tears. Now I know how Tyrion has felt, all those
times they laughed at him.
After the second time he fell from the saddle, they bound him tight to Brienne of Tarth and made them
share a horse again. One day, instead of back to front, they bound them face-to-face. "The lovers,"
Shagwell sighed loudly, "and what a lovely sight they are. 'Twould be cruel to separate the good knight
and his lady." Then he laughed that high shrill laugh of his, and said, "Ah, but which one is the knight and
which one is the lady? "
If I had my hand, you'd learn that soon enough, Jaime thought. His arms ached and his legs were numb
from the ropes, but after a while none of that mattered. His world shrunk to the throb of agony that was
his phantom hand, and Brienne pressed against him. She's warm, at least, he consoled himself, though the
wench's breath was as foul as his own.
His hand was always between them. Urswyck had hung it about his neck on a cord, so it dangled down
against his chest, slapping Brienne's breasts as Jaime slipped in and out of consciousness. His right eye
was swollen shut, the wound inflamed where Brienne had cut him during their fight, but it was his hand


that hurt the most. Blood and pus seeped from his stump, and the missing hand throbbed every time the
horse took a step.
His throat was so raw that he could not eat, but he drank wine when they gave it to him, and water when
that was all they offered. Once they handed him a cup and he quaffed it straight away, trembling, and the
Brave Companions burst into laughter so loud and harsh it hurt his ears. "That's horse piss you're
drinking, Kingslayer," Rorge told him. Jaime was so thirsty he drank it anyway, but afterward he retched
it all back up. They made Brienne wash the vomit out of his beard, just as they made her clean him up
when he soiled himself in the saddle.
One damp cold morning when he was feeling slightly stronger, a madness took hold of him and he
reached for the Dornishman's sword with his left hand and wrenched it clumsily from its scabbard. Let
them kill me, he thought, so long as I die fighting, a blade in hand. But it was no good. Shagwell came
hopping from leg to leg, dancing nimbly aside when Jaime slashed at him. Unbalanced, he staggered
forward, hacking wildly at the fool, but Shagwell spun and ducked and darted until all the Mummers
were laughing at Jaime's futile efforts to land a blow. When he tripped over a rock and stumbled to his
knees, the fool leapt in and planted a wet kiss atop his head.
Rorge finally flung him aside and kicked the sword from Jaime's feeble fingers as he tried to bring it up.
"That wath amuthing, Kingthlayer," said Vargo Hoat, "but if you try it again, I thall. take your other hand,
or perhapth a foot."
Jaime lay on his back afterward, staring at the night sky, trying not to feel the pain that snaked up his
right arm every time he moved it. The night was strangely beautiful. The moon was a graceful crescent,
and it seemed as though he had never seen so many stars. The King's Crown was at the zenith, and he
could see the Stallion rearing, and there the Swan. The Moonmaid, shy as ever, was half-hidden behind a
pine tree. How can such a night be beautiful? he asked himself. Why would the stars want to look down
on such as me?
"Jaime," Brienne whispered, so faintly he thought he was dreaming it. "Jaime, what are you doing?"
"Dying," he whispered back.
"No," she said, "no, you must live."
He wanted to laugh. "Stop telling me what do, wench. I'll die if it pleases me."
"Are you so craven?"
The word shocked him. He was Jaime Lannister, a knight of the Kingsguard, he was the Kingslayer. No
man had ever called him craven. Other things they called him, yes; oathbreaker, liar, murderer. They said
he was cruel, treacherous, reckless. But never craven. "What else can I do, but die?"
"Live," she said, "live, and fight, and take revenge." But she spoke too loudly. Rorge heard her voice, if
not her words, and came over to kick her, shouting at her to hold her bloody tongue if she wanted to
keep it.
Craven, Jaime thought, as Brienne fought to stifle her moans. Can it be? They took my sword hand.
Was that all I was, a sword hand? Gods be good, is it true?
The wench had the right of it. He could not die. Cersei was waiting for him. She would have need of


him. And Tyrion, his little brother, who loved him for a lie. And his enemies were waiting too; the Young
Wolf who had beaten him in the Whispering Wood and killed his men around him, Edmure Tully who
had kept him in darkness and chains, these Brave Companions.
When morning came, he made himself eat. They fed him a mush of oats, horse food, but he forced down
every spoon. He ate again at evenfall, and the next day. Live, he told himself harshly, when the mush was
like to gag him, live for Cersei, live for Tyrion. Live for vengeance. A Lannister always pays his debts.
His missing hand throbbed and burned and stank. When I reach King's Landing I'll have a new hand
forged, a golden hand, and one day I'll use it to rip out Vargo Hoat's throat.
The days and the nights blurred together in a haze of pain. He would sleep in the saddle, pressed against
Brienne, his nose full of the stink of his rotting hand, and then at night he would lie awake on the hard
ground, caught in a waking nightmare. Weak as he was, they always bound him to a tree. It gave him
some cold consolation to know that they feared him that much, even now.
Brienne was always bound beside him. She lay there in her bonds like a big dead cow, saying not a
word. The wench has built a fortress inside herself. They will rape her soon enough, but behind her walls
they cannot touch her. But Jaime's walls were gone. They had taken his hand, they had taken his sword
hand, and without it he was nothing. The other was no good to him. Since the time he could walk, his left
arm had been his shield arm, no more. It was his right hand that made him a knight; his right arm that
made him a man.
One day, he heard Urswyck say something about Harrenhal, and remembered that was to be their
destination. That made him laugh aloud, and that made Timeon slash his face with a long thin whip. The
cut bled, but beside his hand he scarcely felt it. "Why did you laugh?" the wench asked him that night, in a
whisper.
"Harrenhal was where they gave me the white cloak," he whispered back. "Whent's great tourney. He
wanted to show us all his big castle and his fine sons. I wanted to show them too. I was only fifteen, but
no one could have beaten me that day. Aerys never let me joust." He laughed again. "He sent me away.
But now I'm coming back."
They heard the laugh. That night it was Jaime who got the kicks and punches. He hardly felt them either,
until Rorge slammed a boot into his stump, and then he fainted.
It was the next night when they finally came, three of the worst; Shagwell, noseless Rorge, and the fat
Dothraki Zollo, the one who'd cut his hand off. Zollo and Rorge were arguing about who would go first
as they approached; there seemed to be no question but that the fool would be going last. Shagwell
suggested that they should both go first, and take her front and rear. Zollo and Rorge liked that notion,
only then they began to fight about who would get the front and who the rear.
They will leave her a cripple too, but inside, where it does not show "Wench," he whispered as Zollo
and Rorge were cursing one another, "let them have the meat, and you go far away. It will be over
quicker, and they'll get less pleasure from it."
"They'll get no pleasure from what I'll give them," she whispered back, defiant.
Stupid stubborn brave bitch. She was going to get herself good and killed, he knew it. And what do I
care if she does? If she hadn't been so pigheaded, I'd still have a hand. Yet he heard himself whisper,
"Let them do it, and go away inside." That was what he'd done, when the Starks had died before him,
Lord Rickard cooking in his armor while his son Brandon strangled himself trying to save him. "Think of


Renly, if you loved him. Think of Tarth, mountains and seas, pools, waterfalls, whatever you have on
your Sapphire Isle, think . . . "
But Rorge had won the argument by then. "You're the ugliest woman I ever seen," he told Brienne, "but
don't think I can't make you uglier. You want a nose like mine? Fight me, and you'll get one. And two
eyes, that's too many. One scream out o' you, and I'll pop one out and make you eat it, and then I'll pull
your fucking teeth out one by one."
"Oh, do it, Rorge," pleaded Shagwell. "Without her teeth, she'll look just like my dear old mother." He
cackled. "And I always wanted to fuck my dear old mother up the arse."
Jaime chuckled. "There's a funny fool. I have a riddle for you, Shagwell. Why do you care if she
screams? Oh, wait, I know." He shouted, "SAPPHIRES," as loudly as he could.
Cursing, Rorge kicked at his stump again. Jaime howled. I never knew there was such agony in the
world, was the last thing he remembered thinking. it was hard to say how long he was gone, but when the
pain
spit him out, Urswyck was there, and Vargo Hoat himself. "Thee'th not to be touched," the goat
screamed, spraying spittle all over Zollo. "Thee hath to be a maid, you foolth! Thee'th worth a bag of
thapphireth!" And from then on, every night Hoat put guards on them, to protect them from his own.
Two nights passed in silence before the wench finally found the courage to whisper, "Jaime? Why did
you shout out?"
"Why did I shout 'sapphires,'you mean? Use your wits, wench. Would this lot have cared if I shouted
'rape'?
"You did not need to shout at all."
"You're hard enough to look at with a nose. Besides, I wanted to make the goat say'thapphireth."' He
chuckled. "A good thing for you I'm such aliar. An honorable man would have told the truth about the
SapphireIsle."
"All the same," she said. "I thank you, ser."
His hand was throbbing again. He ground his teeth and said, "A Lannister pays his debts. That was for
the river, and those rocks you dropped on Robin Ryger."
The goat wanted to make a show of parading him in, so Jaime was made to dismount a mile from the
gates of Harrenhal. A rope was looped around his waist, a second around Brienne's wrists; the ends
were tied to the pommel of Vargo Hoat's saddle. They stumbled along side by side behind the Qohorik's
striped zorse.
Jaime's rage kept him walking. The linen that covered the stump was grey and stinking with pus. His
phantom fingers screamed with every step. I am stronger than they know, he told himself. I am still a
Lannister. I am still a knight of the Kingsguard. He would reach Harrenhal, and then King's Landing. He
would live. And I will pay this debt with interest.
As they approached the clifflike walls of Black Harren's monstrous castle, Brienne squeezed his arm.
"Lord Bolton holds this castle. The Boltons are bannermen to the Starks."


"The Boltons skin their enemies." Jaime remembered that much about the northman. Tyrion would have
known all there was to know about the Lord of the Dreadfort, but Tyrion was a thousand leagues away,
with Cersei. I cannot die while Cersei lives, he told himself. We will die together as we were born
together.
The castleton outside the walls had been burned to ash and blackened stone, and many men and horses
had recently encamped beside the lakeshore, where Lord Whent had staged his great tourney in the year
of the false spring. A bitter smile touched Jaime's lips as they crossed that torn ground. Someone had dug
a privy trench in the very spot where he'd once knelt before the king to say his vows. I never dreamed
how quick the sweet would turn to sour. Aerys would not even let me savor that one night. He honored
me, and then he spat on me.
"The banners," Brienne observed. "Flayed man and twin towers, see. King Robb's sworn men. There,
above the gatehouse, grey on white. They fly the direwolf."
Jaime twisted his head upward for a look. "That's your bloody wolf, true enough," he granted her. "And
those are heads to either side of it."
Soldiers, servants, and camp followers gathered to hoot at them. A spotted bitch followed them through
the camps barking and growling until one of the Lyseni impaled her on a lance and galloped to the front
of the column. "I am bearing Kingslayer's banner," he shouted, shaking the dead dog above Jaime's head.
The walls of Harrenhal were so thick that passing beneath them was like passing through a stone tunnel.
Vargo Hoat had sent two of his Dothraki ahead to inform Lord Bolton of their coming, so the outer ward
was full of the curious. They gave way as Jaime staggered past, the rope around his waist jerking and
pulling at him whenever he slowed. "I give you the Kingthlayer," Vargo Hoat proclaimed in that thick
slobbery voice of his. A spear jabbed at the small of Jaime's back, sending him sprawling.
Instinct made him put out his hands to stop his fall. When his stump smashed against the ground the pain
was blinding, yet somehow he managed to fight his way back to one knee. Before him, a flight of broad
stone steps led up to the entrance of one of Harrenhal's colossal round towers. Five knights and a
northman stood looking down on him; the one paleeyed in wool and fur, the five fierce in mail and plate,
with the twin towers sigil on their surcoats. "A fury of Freys," Jaime declared. "Ser Danwell, Ser Aenys,
Ser Hosteen." He knew Lord Walder's sons by sight; his aunt had married one, after all. "You have my
condolences."
"For what, ser?" Ser Danwell Frey asked.
"Your brother's son, Ser Cleos," said Jaime. "He was with us until outlaws filled him full of arrows.
Urswyck and this lot took his goods and left him for the wolves."
"My lords!" Brienne wrenched herself free and pushed forward. "I saw your banners. Hear me for your
oath!"
"Who speaks?" demanded Ser Aenys Frey.
"Lannither'th wet nurth."
"I am Brienne of Tarth, daughter to Lord Selwyn the Evenstar, and sworn to House Stark even as you
are."


Ser Aenys spit at her feet. "That's for your oaths. We trusted the word of Robb Stark, and he repaid our
faith with betrayal."
Now this is interesting. Jaime twisted to see how Brienne might take the accusation, but the wench was
as singleminded as a mule with a bit between his teeth. "I know of no betrayal." She chafed at the ropes
around her wrists. "Lady Catelyn commanded me to deliver Larmister to his brother at King's Landing - "
"She was trying to drown him when we found them," said Urswyck the Faithful.
She reddened. "In anger I forgot myself, but I would never have killed him. if he dies the Lannisters will
put my lady's daughters to the sword."
Ser Aenys was unmoved. "Why should that trouble us?"
"Ransom him back to Riverrun," urged Ser Danwell.
"Casterly Rock has more gold," one brother objected.
"Kill him!" said another. "His head for Ned Stark's!"
Shagwell the Fool somersaulted to the foot of the steps in his grey and pink motley and began to sing.
"There once was a lion who danced with a bear, oh my, oh my..."
"Thilenth, fool." Vargo Hoat cuffed the man. "The Kingthlayer ith not for the bear. He ith mine."
"He is no one's should he die." Roose Bolton spoke so softly that men quieted to hear him. "And pray
recall, my lord, you are not master of Harrenhal till I march north."
Fever made Jaime as fearless as he was lightheaded. "Can this be the Lord of the Dreadfort? When last
I heard, my father had sent you scampering off with your tail betwixt your legs. When did you stop
runnin& my lord?"
Bolton's silence was a hundred times more threatening than Vargo Hoat's slobbering malevolence. Pale
as morning mist, his eyes concealed more than they told. Jaime misliked those eyes. They reminded him
of the day at King's Landing when Ned Stark had found him seated on the Iron Throne. The Lord of the
Dreadfort finally pursed his lips and said, "You have lost a hand."
"No," said Jaime, "I have it here, hanging round my neck."
Roose Bolton reached down, snapped the cord, and flung the hand at Hoat. "Take this away. The sight
of it offends me."
"I will thend it to hith lord father. I will tell him he muth pay one hundred thouthand dragonth, or we thall
return the Kingthlayer to him pieth by pieth. And when we hath hith gold, we thall deliver Ther Jaime to
Karthark, and collect a maiden too!" A roar of laughter went up from the Brave Companions.
"A fine plan," said Roose Bolton, the same way he might say, "A fine wine," to a dinner companion,
"though Lord Karstark will not be giving you his daughter. King Robb has shortened him by a head, for
treason and murder. As to Lord Tywin, he remains at King's Landing, and there he will stay till the new
year, when his grandson takes for bride a daughter of Highgarden."


"Winterfell," said Brienne. "You mean Winterfell. King Joffrey is betrothed to Sansa Stark."
"No longer. The Battle of the Blackwater changed all. The rose and
the lion joined there, to shatter Stannis Baratheon's host and bum his fleet to ashes."
I warned you, Urswyck, Jaime thought, and you, goat. When you bet against the lions, you lose more
than your purse. "Is there word of my sister?" he asked.
"She is well. As is your ... nephew." Bolton paused before he said nephew, a pause that said I know.
"Your brother also lives, though he took a wound in the battle." He beckoned to a dour northman in a
studded brigantine. "Escort Ser Jaime to Qybum. And unbind this woman's hands." As the rope between
Brienne's wrists was slashed in two, he said, "Pray forgive us, my lady. In such troubled times it is hard to
know friend from foe."
Brienne rubbed inside her wrist where the hemp had scraped her skin bloody. "My lord, these men tried
to rape me."
"Did they?" Lord Bolton turned his pale eyes on Vargo Hoat. "I am displeased. By that, and this of Ser
Jaime's hand."
There were five northmen and as many Freys in the yard for every Brave Companion. The goat might
not be as clever as some, but he could count that high at least. He held his tongue.
"They took my sword," Brienne said, "my armor..."
"You shall have no need of armor here, my lady," Lord Bolton told her. "In Harrenhal, you are under my
protection. Amabel, find suitable rooms for the Lady Brienne. Walton, you will see to Ser Jaime at once."
He did not wait for an answer, but turned and climbed the steps, his fur-trimmed cloak swirling behind.
Jaime had only enough time to exchange a quick look with Brienne before they were marched away,
separately.
In the maester's chambers beneath the rookery, a grey-haired, fatherly man named Qybum sucked in his
breath when he cut away the linen from the stump of Jaime's hand.
"That bad? Will I die?"
Qybum pushed at the wound with a finger, and wrinkled his nose at the gush of pus. "No. Though in a
few more days..." He sliced away Jaime's sleeve. "The corruption has spread. See how tender the flesh
is? I must cut it all away. The safest course would be to take the arm off."
"Then you'll die," Jaime promised. "Clean the stump and sew it up. I'll take my chances."
Qybum frowned. "I can leave you the upper arm, make the cut at your elbow, but . . . "
"Take any part of my arm, and you'd best chop off the other one as well, or I'll strangle you with it
afterward."
Qybum looked in his eyes. Whatever he saw there gave him pause. "Very well. I will cut away the rotten
flesh, no more. Try to bum out


the corruption with boiling wine and a poultice of nettle, mustard seed, and bread mold. Mayhaps that
will suffice. It is on your head. You will want milk of the poppy - "
"No." Jaime dare not let himself be put to sleep; he might be short an arm when he woke, no matter
what the man said.
Qyburn was taken aback. "There will be pain."
"I'll scream."
"A great deal of pain."
"I'll scream very loudly."
"Will you take some wine at least?"
"Does the High Septon ever pray?"
"Of that I am not certain. I shall bring the wine. Lie back, I must needs strap down your arm."
With a bowl and a sharp blade, Qyburn cleaned the stump while Jaime gulped down strongwine, spilling
it all over himself in the process. His left hand did not seem to know how to find his mouth, but there was
something to be said for that. The smell of wine in his sodden beard helped disguise the stench of pus.
Nothing helped when the time came to pare away the rotten flesh. Jaime did scream then, and pounded
his table with his good fist, over and over and over again. He screamed again when Qyburn poured
boiling wine over what remained of his stump. Despite all his vows and all his fears, he lost consciousness
for a time. When he woke, the maester was sewing at his arm with needle and catgut. "I left a flap of skin
to fold back over your wrist."
"You have done this before," muttered Jaime, weakly. He could taste blood in his mouth where he'd
bitten his tongue.
"No man who serves with Vargo Hoat is a stranger to stumps. He makes them wherever he goes."
Qyburn did not look a monster, Jaime thought. He was spare and soft-spoken, with warm brown eyes.
"How does a maester come to ride with the Brave Companions?"
"The Citadel took my chain." Qyburn put away his needle. "I should do something about that wound
above your eye as well. The flesh is badly inflamed."
Jaime closed his eyes and let the wine and Qyburn do their work. "Tell me of the battle." As keeper of
Harrenhal's ravens, Qyburn would have been the first to hear the news.
"Lord Stannis was caught between your father and the fire. It's said the Imp set the river itself aflame."
Jaime saw green flames reaching up into the sky higher than the tallest towers, as burning men screamed
in the streets. Ihave dreamed this dream before. it was almost funny, but there was no one to share the
joke.


"Open your eye." Qyburn soaked a cloth in warm water and dabbed at the crust of dried blood. The
eyelid was swollen, but Jaime found he could force it open halfway. Qyburn's face loomed above. "How
did you come by this one?" the maester asked.
"A wench's gift."
"Rough wooing, my lord?"
"This wench is bigger than me and uglier than you. You'd best see to her as well. She's still limping on the
leg I pricked when we fought."
"I will ask after her. What is this woman to you?"
"My protector." Jaime had to laugh, no matter how it hurt.
"I'll grind some herbs you can mix with wine to bring down your fever. Come back on the morrow and
I'll put a leech on your eye to drain the bad blood."
"A leech. Lovely."
"Lord Bolton is very fond of leeches," Qyburn said primly.
"Yes," said Jaime. "He would be."
Chapter 32
Tyrion
Nothing remained beyond the King's Gate but mud and ashes and bits of burned bone, yet already there
were people living in the shadow of the city walls, and others selling fish from barrows and barrels.
Tyrion felt their eyes on him as he rode past; chilly eyes, angry and unsympathetic. No one dared speak
to him, or try to bar his way; not with Bronn beside him in oiled black mail. If I were alone, though, they
would pull me down and smash my face in with a cobblestone, as they did for Preston Greenfield.
"They come back quicker than the rats," he complained. "We burned them out once, you'd think they'd
take that as a lesson."
"Give me a few dozen gold cloaks and I'll kill them all," said Bronn. "Once they're dead they don't come
back."
"No, but others come in their places. Leave them be ... but if they start throwing up hovels against the
wall again, pull them down at once. The war's not done yet, no matter what these fools may think." He
spied the Mud Gate up ahead. "I have seen enough for now. We'll return on the morrow with the guild
masters to go over their plans." He sighed. Well, I burned most of this, I suppose it's only just that I
rebuild it.
That task was to have been his uncle's, but solid, steady, tireless Ser Kevan Lannister had not been


himself since the raven had come from Riverrun with word of his son's murder. Willem's twin Martyn had
been taken captive by Robb Stark as well, and their elder brother Lancel was still abed, beset by an
ulcerating wound that would not heal. With one son dead and two more in mortal danger, Ser Kevan
was consumed by
grief and fear. Lord Tywin had always relied on his brother, but now he had no choice but to turn again
to his dwarf son.
The cost of rebuilding was going to be ruinous, but there was no help for that. King's Landing was the
realm's principal harbor, rivaled only by Oldtown. The river had to be reopened, and the sooner the
better. And where am I going to find the bloody coin? it was almost enough to make him miss Littlefinger,
who had sailed north a fortnight past. While he beds Lysa Arryn and rules the Vale beside her, I get to
clean up the mess he left behind him. Though at least his father was giving him significant work to do. He
won't name me heir to Casterly Rock, but he'll make use of me wherever he can, Tyrion thought, as a
captain of gold cloaks waved them through the Mud Gate.
The Three Whores still dominated the market square inside the gate, but they stood idle now, and the
boulders and barrels of pitch had all been trundled away. There were children climbing the towering
wooden structures, swarming up like monkeys in roughspun to perch on the throwing arms and hoot at
each other.
"Remind me to tell Ser Addam to post some gold cloaks here," Tyrion told Bronn as they rode between
two of the trebuchets. "Some fool boy's like to fall off and break his back." There was a shout from
above, and a clod of manure exploded on the ground a foot in front of them. Tyrion's mare reared and
almost threw him. "On second thoughts," he said when he had the horse in hand, "let the poxy brats
splatter on the cobbles like overripe melons."
He was in a black mood, and not just because a few street urchins wanted to pelt him with dung. His
marriage was a daily agony. Sansa Stark remained a maiden, and half the castle seemed to know it.
When they had saddled up this morning, he'd heard two of the stableboys sniggering behind his back. He
could almost imagine that the horses were sniggering as well. He'd risked his skin to avoid the bedding
ritual, hoping to preserve the privacy of his bedchamber, but that hope had been dashed quick enough.
Either Sansa had been stupid enough to confide in one of her bedmaids, every one of whom was a spy
for Cersei, or Varys and his little birds were to blame.
What difference did it make? They were laughing at him all the same. The only person in the Red Keep
who didn't seem to find his marriage a source of amusement was his lady wife.
Sansa's misery was deepening every day. Tyrion would gladly have broken through her courtesy to give
her what solace he might, but it was no good. No words would ever make him fair in her eyes. Or any
less a Lannister. This was the wife they had given him, for all the rest of his life, and she hated him.
And their nights together in the great bed were another source of
torment. He could no longer bear to sleep naked, as had been his custom. His wife was too well trained
ever to say an unkind word, but the revulsion in her eyes whenever she looked on his body was more
than he could bear. Tyrion had commanded Sansa to wear a sleeping shift as well. I want her, he
realized. I want Winterfell, yes, but I want her as well, child or woman or whatever she is. I want to
comfort her. I want to hear her laugh. I want her to come to me willingly, to bring me her joys and her
sorrows and her lust. His mouth twisted in a bitter smile. Yes, and I want to be tall as Jaime and as strong
as Ser Gregor the Mountain too, for all the bloody good it does.


Unbidden, his thoughts went to Shae. Tyrion had not wanted her to hear the news from any lips but his
own, so he had commanded Varys to bring her to him the night before his wedding. They met again in the
eunuch's chambers, and when Shae began to undo the laces of his jerkin, he'd caught her by the wrist
and pushed her away. "Wait," he said, "there is something you must hear. On the morrow I am to be wed
. . .
". . . to Sansa Stark. I know."
He was speechless for an instant. Even Sansa did not know, not then. "How could you know? Did
Varys tell you?"
"Some page was telling Ser Tallad about it when I took Lollys to the sept. He had it from this serving girl
who heard Ser Kevan talking to your father." She wriggled free of his grasp and pulled her dress up over
her head. As ever, she was naked underneath. "I don't care. She's only a little girl. You'll give her a big
belly and come back to me."
Some part of him had hoped for less indifference. Had hoped, he jeered bitterly, but now you know
better, dwarf. Shae is all the love you're ever like to have.
Muddy Way was crowded, but soldiers and townfolk alike made way for the Imp and his escort.
Hollow-eyed children swarmed underfoot, some looking up in silent appeal whilst others begged noisily.
Tyrion pulled a big fistful of coppers from his purse and tossed them in the air, and the children went
running for them, shoving and shouting. The lucky ones might be able to buy a heel of stale bread tonight.
He had never seen markets so crowded, and for all the food the Tyrells were bringing in, prices remained
shockingly high. Six coppers for a melon, a silver stag for a bushel of corn, a dragon for a side of beef or
six skinny piglets. Yet there seemed no lack of buyers. Gaunt men and haggard women crowded around
every wagon and stall, while others even more ragged looked on sullenly from the mouths of alleys.
"This way," Bronn said, when they reached the foot of the Hook. "If you still mean to ... ?"
"I do." The riverfront had made a convenient excuse, but Tyrion had another purpose today. It was not a
task he relished, but it must be done.
They turned away from Aegon's High Hill, into the maze of smaller streets that clustered around the foot
of Visenya's. Bronn led the way. Once or twice Tyrion glanced back over his shoulder to see if they
were being followed, but there was nothing to be seen except the usual rabble: a carter beating his horse,
an old woman throwing nightsoil from her window, two little boys fighting with sticks, three gold cloaks
escorting a captive ... they all looked innocent, but any one of them could be his undoing. Varys had
informers everywhere.
They turned at a comer, and again at the next, and rode slowly through a crowd of women at a well.
Bronn led him along a curving wynd, through an alley, under a broken archway. They cut through the
rubble where a house had burned and walked their horses up a shallow flight of stone steps. The
buildings were close and poor. Brorm halted at the mouth of a crooked alley, too narrow for two to ride
abreast. "There's two jags and then a dead end. The sink is in the cellar of the last building."
Tyrion swung down off his horse. "See that no one enters or leaves till I return. This won't take long."
His hand went into his cloak, to make certain the gold was still there in the hidden pocket. Thirty
dragons. A bloody fortune, for a man like him. He waddled up the alley quickly, anxious to be done with
this.


The wine sink was a dismal place, dark and damp, walls pale with niter, the ceiling so low that Bronn
would have had to duck to keep from hitting his head on the beams. Tyrion Lannister had no such
problem. At this hour, the front room was empty but for a dead-eyed woman who sat on a stool behind
a rough plank bar. She handed him a cup of sour wine and said, "In the back."
The back room was even darker. A flickering candle burned on a low table, beside a flagon of wine.
The man behind it scarce looked a danger; a short man - though all men were tall to Tyrion - with
thinning brown hair, pink cheeks, and a little pot pushing at the bone buttons of his doeskin jerkin. In his
soft hands he held a twelve-stringed woodharp more deadly than a longsword.
Tyrion sat across from him. "Symon Silver Tongue."
The man inclined his head. He was bald on top. "My lord Hand," he said.
"You mistake me. My father is the King's Hand. I am no longer even a finger, I fear."
"You shall rise again, I am sure. A man like you. My sweet lady Shae tells me you are newly wed.
Would that you had sent for me earlier. I should have been honored to sing at your feast."
"The last thing my wife needs is more songs," said Tyrion. "As for Shae, we both know she is no lady,
and I would thank you never to speak her name aloud."
"As the Hand commands," Symon said.
The last time Tyrion had seen the man, a sharp word had been enough to set him sweating, but it seemed
the singer had found some courage somewhere. Most like in that flagon. Or perhaps Tyrion himself was
to blame for this new boldness. I threatened him, but nothing ever came of the threat, so now he believes
me toothless. He sighed. "I am told you are a very gifted singer."
"You are most kind to say so, my lord."
Tyrion gave him a smile. "I think it is time you brought your music to the Free Cities. They are great
lovers of song in Braavos and Pentos and Lys, and generous with those who please them." He took a sip
of wine. It was foul stuff, but strong. "A tour of all nine cities would be best. You wouldn't want to deny
anyone the joy of hearing you sing. A year in each should suffice." He reached inside his cloak, to where
the gold was hidden. "With the port closed, you will need to go to Duskendale to take ship, but my man
Brorm will find a horse for you, and I would be honored if you would let me pay your passage . . . "
"But my lord," the man objected, "you have never heard me sing. Pray listen a moment." His fingers
moved deftly over the strings of the woodharp, and soft music filled the cellar. Symon began to sing.
He rode through the streets of the city, down from his hill on high,
O'er the wynds and the steps and the cobbles, he rode to a woman's sigh.
For she was his secret treasure, she was his shame and his bliss.
And a chain and a keep are nothing, compared to a woman's kiss.
"There's more," the man said as he broke off, "Oh, a good deal more. The refrain is especially nice, I


think. For hands of gold are always cold, but a woman's hands are warm..."
"Enough." Tyrion slid his fingers from his cloak, empty. "That's not a song I would care to hear again.
Ever."
"No?" Symon Silver Tongue put his harp aside and took a sip of wine. "A pity. Still, each man has his
song, as my old master used to say when he was teaching me to play. Others might like my tune better.
The queen, perhaps. Or your lord father."
Tyrion rubbed the scar over his nose, and said, "My father has no time for singers, and my sister is not
as generous as one might think. A wise man could earn more from silence than from song." He could not
put it much plainer than that.
Symon seemed to take his meaning quick enough. "You will find my price modest, my lord."
"That's good to know." This would not be a matter of thirty golden dragons, Tyrion feared. "Tell me."
"At King Joffrey's wedding feast," the man said, "there is to be a tournament of singers."
"And jugglers, and jesters, and dancing bears."
"Only one dancing bear, my lord," said Symon, who had plainly attended Cersei's arrangements with far
more interest than Tyrion had, "but seven singers. Galyeon of Cuy, Bethany Fair-fingers, Aemon
Costayne, Alaric of Eysen, Hamish the Harper, Collio Quaynis, and Orland of Oldtown will compete for
a gilded lute with silver strings ... yet unaccountably, no invitation has been forthcoming for one who is
master of them all."
"Let me guess. Symon Silver Tongue?"
Symon smiled modestly. "I am prepared to prove the truth of my boast before king and court. Hamish is
old, and oft forgets what he is singing. And Collio, with that absurd Tyroshi accent! if you understand one
word in three, count yourself fortunate."
"My sweet sister has arranged the feast. Even if I could secure you this invitation, it might look queer.
Seven kingdoms, seven vows, seven challenges, seventy-seven dishes ... but eight singers? What would
the High Septon think?"
"You did not strike me as a pious man, my lord."
"Piety is not the point. Certain forms must be observed."
Symon took a sip of wine. "Still ... a singer's life is not without peril. We ply our trade in alehouses and
wine sinks, before unruly drunkards. If one of your sister's seven should suffer some mishap, I hope you
might consider me to fill his place." He smiled slyly, inordinately pleased with himself .
"Six singers would be as unfortunate as eight, to be sure. I will inquire after the health of Cersei's seven.
If any of them should be indisposed, my man Brorm will find you."
"Very good, my lord." Symon might have left it at that, but flushed with triumph, he added, "I shall sing
the night of King Joffrey's wedding. Should it happen that I am called to court, why, I will want to offer
the king my very best compositions, songs I have sung a thousand times that are certain to please. If I


should find myself singing in some dreary winesink, though ... well, that would be an apt occasion to try
my new song. For hands of gold are always cold, but a woman's hands are warm."
"That will not be necessary," said Tyrion. "You have my word as a Lannister, Bronn will call upon you
soon."
"Very good, my lord." The balding kettle-bellied singer took up his woodharp again.
Bronn was waiting with the horses at the mouth of the alley. He helped Tyrion into his saddle. "When do
I take the man to Duskendale?"
"You don't." Tyrion turned his horse. "Give him three days, then inform him that Hamish the Harper has
broken his arm. Tell him that his clothes will never serve for court, so he must be fitted for new garb at
once. He'll come with you quick enough." He grimaced. "You may want his tongue, I understand it's
made of silver. The rest of him should never be found."
Bronn grinned. "There's a pot shop I know in Flea Bottom makes a savory bowl of brown. All kinds of
meat in it, I hear."
"Make certain I never eat there." Tyrion spurred to a trot. He wanted a bath, and the hotter the better.
Even that modest pleasure was denied him, however; no sooner had he returned to his chambers than
Podrick Payne informed him that he had been summoned to the Tower of the Hand. "His lordship wants
to see you. The Hand. Lord Tywin."
"I recall who the Hand is, Pod," Tyrion said. "I lost my nose, not my wits."
Bronn laughed. "Don't bite the boy's head off now."
"Why not? He never uses it." Tyrion wondered what he'd done now. Or more like, what I have failed to
do. A summons from Lord Tywin always had teeth; his father never sent for him just to share a meal or a
cup of wine, that was for certain.
As he entered his lord father's solar a few moments later, he heard a voice saying, ". . . cherrywood for
the scabbards, bound in red leather and ornamented with a row of lion's-head studs in pure gold.
Perhaps with garnets for the eyes. . ."
"Rubies," Lord Tywin said. "Garnets lack the fire."
Tyrion cleared his throat. "My lord. You sent for me?"
His father glanced up. "I did. Come have a look at this." A bundle of oilcloth lay on the table between
them, and Lord Tywin had a longsword in his hand. "A wedding gift for Joffrey," he told Tyrion. The light
streaming through the diamond-shaped panes of glass made the blade shimmer black and red as Lord
Tywin turned it to inspect the edge, while the pommel and crossguard flamed gold. "With this fool's
jabber of Stannis and his magic sword, it seemed to me that we had best give Joffrey something
extraordinary as well. A king should bear a kingly weapon."
"That's much too much sword for Joff," Tyrion said.
"He will grow into it. Here, feel the weight of it." He offered the weapon hilt first.


The sword was much lighter than he had expected. As he turned it in his hand he saw why. Only one
metal could be beaten so thin and still have strength enough to fight with, and there was no mistaking
those
ripples, the mark of steel that has been folded back on itself many thousands of times. "Valyrian steel?"
"Yes," Lord Tywin said, in a tone of deep satisfaction.
At long last, Father? Valyrian steel blades were scarce and costly, yet thousands remained in the world,
perhaps two hundred in the Seven Kingdoms alone. It had always irked his father that none belonged to
House Lannister. The old Kings of the Rock had owned such a weapon, but the greatsword Brightroar
had been lost when the second King Tommen carried it back to Valyria on his fool's quest. He had never
returned; nor had Uncle Gery, the youngest and most reckless of his father's brothers, who had gone
seeking after the lost sword some eight years past.
Thrice at least Lord Tywin had offered to buy Valyrian longswords from impoverished lesser houses, but
his advances had always been firmly rebuffed. The little lordlings would gladly part with their daughters
should a Lannister come asking, but they cherished their old family swords.
Tyrion wondered where the metal for this one had come from. A few master armorers could rework old
Valyrian steel, but the secrets of its making had been lost when the Doom came to old Valyria. "The
colors are strange," he commented as he turned the blade in the sunlight. Most Valyrian steel was a grey
so dark it looked almost black, as was true here as well. But blended into the folds was a red as deep as
the grey. The two colors lapped over one another without ever touching, each ripple distinct, like waves
of night and blood upon some steely shore. "How did you get this patterning? I've never seen anything
like it."
"Nor I, my lord," said the armorer. "I confess, these colors were not what I intended, and I do not know
that I could duplicate them. Your lord father had asked for the crimson of your House, and it was that
color I set out to infuse into the metal. But Valyrian steel is stubborn. These old swords remember, it is
said, and they do not change easily. I worked half a hundred spells and brightened the red time and time
again, but always the color would darken, as if the blade was drinking the sun from it. And some folds
would not take the red at all, as you can see. if my lords of Lannister are displeased, I will of course try
again, as many times as you should require, but - "
"No need," Lord Tywin said. "This will serve."
"A crimson sword might flash prettily in the sun, but if truth be told I like these colors better," said
Tyrion. "They have an ominous beauty ... and they make this blade unique. There is no other sword like it
in all the world, I should think."
"There is one." The armorer bent over the table and unfolded the bundle of oilcloth, to reveal a second
longsword.
Tyrion put down Joffrey's sword and took up the other. If not twins, the two were at least close cousins.
This one was thicker and heavier, a half-inch wider and three inches longer, but they shared the same fine
clean lines and the same distinctive color, the ripples of blood and night. Three fullers, deeply incised, ran
down the second blade from hilt to point; the king's sword had only two. Joff's hilt was a good deal more
ornate, the arms of its crossguard done as lions' paws with ruby claws unsheathed, but both swords had
grips of finely tooled red leather and gold lions' heads for pornmels.


"Magnificent." Even in hands as unskilled as Tyrion's, the blade felt alive. "I have never felt better
balance."
"It is meant for my son."
No need to ask which son. Tyrion placed Jaime's sword back on the table beside Joffrey's, wondering if
Robb Stark would let his brother live long enough to wield it. Our father must surely think so, else why
have this blade forged?
"You have done good work, Master Mott," Lord Tywin told the armorer. "My steward will see to your
payment. And remember, rubies for the scabbards."
"I shall, my lord. You are most generous." The man folded the swords up in the oilcloth, tucked the
bundle under one arm, and went to his knee. "It is an honor to serve the King's Hand. I shall deliver the
swords the day before the wedding."
"See that you do."
When the guards had seen the armorer out, Tyrion clambered up onto a chair. "So ... a sword for Joff, a
sword for Jaime, and not even a dagger for the dwarf. is that the way of it, Father?"
"The steel was sufficient for two blades, not three. If you have need of a dagger, take one from the
armory. Robert left a hundred when he died. Gerion gave him a gilded dagger with an ivory grip and a
sapphire pommel for a wedding gift, and half the envoys who came to court tried to curry favor by
presenting His Grace with jewel-encrusted knives and silver inlay swords."
Tyrion smiled. "They'd have pleased him more if they'd presented him with their daughters."
"No doubt. The only blade he ever used was the hunting knife he had from Jon Arryn, when he was a
boy." Lord Tywin waved a hand, dismissing King Robert and all his knives. "What did you find at the
riverfront? "
"Mud," said Tyrion, "and a few dead things no one's bothered to bury. Before we can open the port
again, the Blackwater's going to have to be dredged, the sunken ships broken up or raised.
Three-quarters of the quays need repair, and some may have to be torn down and rebuilt. The
entire fish market is gone, and both the River Gate and the King's Gate are splintered from the battering
Stannis gave them and should be replaced. I shudder to think of the cost." If you do shit gold, Father,
find a privy and get busy, he wanted to say, but he knew better.
"You will find whatever gold is required."
"Will I? Where? The treasury is empty, I've told you that. We're not done paying the alchemists for all
that wildfire, or the smiths for my chain, and Cersei's pledged the crown to pay half the costs of Joffs
wedding - seventy-seven bloody courses, a thousand guests, a pie full of doves, singers, jugglers. . . "
"Extravagance has its uses. We must demonstrate the power and wealth of Casterly Rock for all the
realm to see."
"Then perhaps Casterly Rock should pay."


"Why? I have seen Littlefinger's accounts. Crown incomes are ten times higher than they were under
Aerys."
"As are the crown's expenses. Robert was as generous with his coin as he was with his cock. Littlefinger
borrowed heavily. From you, amongst others. Yes, the incomes are considerable, but they are barely
sufficient to cover the usury on Littlefinger's loans. Will you forgive the throne's debt to House Lannister?"
"Don't be absurd."
"Then perhaps seven courses would suffice. Three hundred guests instead of a thousand. I understand
that a marriage can be just as binding without a dancing bear."
"The Tyrells would think us niggardly. I will have the wedding and the waterfront. If you cannot pay for
them, say so, and I shall find a master of coin who can."
The disgrace of being dismissed after so short a time was not something Tyrion cared to suffer. "I will
find your money."
"You will," his father promised, "and while you are about it, see if you can find your wife's bed as well."
So the talk has reached even him. "I have, thank you. It's that piece of furniture between the window and
the hearth, with the velvet canopy and the mattress stuffed with goose down."
"I am pleased you know of it. Now perhaps you ought to try and know the woman who shares it with
you."
Woman? Child, you mean. "Has a spider been whispering in your ear, or do I have my sweet sister to
thank?" Considering the things that went on beneath Cersei's blankets, you would think she'd have the
decency to keep her nose out of his. "Tell me, why is it that all of Sansa's maids arc women in Cersei's
service? I am sick of being spied upon in my own chambers."
"If you mislike your wife's servants, dismiss them and hire ones more
to your liking. That is your right. it is your wife's maidenhood that concerns me, not her maids. This ...
delicacy puzzles me. You seem to have no difficulty bedding whores. Is the Stark girl made differently?"
"Why do you take so much bloody interest in where I put my cock?" Tyrion demanded. "Sansa is too
young."
"She is old enough to be Lady of Winterfell once her brother is dead. Claim her maidenhood and you
will be one step closer to claiming the north. Get her with child, and the prize is all but won. Do I need to
remind you that a marriage that has not been consummated can be set aside?"
"By the High Septon or a Council of Faith. Our present High Septon is a trained seal who barks prettily
on command. Moon Boy is more like to annul my marriage than he is."
"Perhaps I should have married Sansa Stark to Moon Boy. He might have known what to do with her."
Tyrion's hands clenched on the arms of his chair. "I have heard all I mean to hear on the subject of my
wife's maidenhead. But so long as we are discussing marriage, why is it that I hear nothing of my sister's


impending nuptials? As I recall - "
Lord Tywin cut him off. "Mace Tyrell has refused my offer to marry Cersei to his heir Willas."
"Refused our sweet Cersei?" That put Tyrion in a much better mood.
"When I first broached the match to him, Lord Tyrell seemed well enough disposed," his father said. "A
day later, all was changed. The old woman's work. She hectors her son unmercifully. Varys claims she
told him that your sister was too old and too used for this precious one-legged grandson of hers."
"Cersei must have loved that." He laughed.
Lord Tywin gave him a chilly look. "She does not know. Nor will she. It is better for all of us if the offer
was never made. See that you remember that, Tyrion. The offer was never made."
"What offer?" Tyrion rather suspected that Lord Tyrell might come to regret this rebuff.
"Your sister M11 be wed. The question is, to whom? I have several thoughts - " Before he could get to
them, there was a rap at the door and a guardsman stuck in his head to announce Grand Maester
Pycelle. "He may enter," said Lord Tywin.
Pycelle tottered in on a cane, and stopped long enough to give Tyrion a look that would curdle milk. His
once-magnificent white beard, which someone had unaccountably shaved off, was growing back sparse
and wispy, leaving him with unsightly pink wattles to dangle beneath his neck. "My lord Hand," the old
man said, bowing as deeply as he could without falling, "there has been another bird from Castle Black.
Mayhaps we could consult privily?"
"There's no need for that." Lord Tywin waved Grand Maester Pycelle to a seat. "Tyrion may stay."
Oooooh, may R He rubbed his nose, and waited.
Pycelle cleared his throat, which involved a deal of coughing and hawking. "The letter is from the same
Bowen Marsh who sent the last. The castellan. He writes that Lord Mormont has sent word of wildlings
moving south in vast numbers."
"The lands beyond the Wall cannot support vast numbers," said Lord Tywin firmly. "This warning is not
new."
"This last is, my lord. Mormont sent a bird from the haunted forest, to report that he was under attack.
More ravens have returned since, but none with letters. This Bowen Marsh fears Lord Mormont slain,
with all his strength."
Tyrion had rather liked old Jeor Mormont, with his gruff manner and talking bird. "Is this certain?" he
asked.
"It is not," Pycelle admitted, "but none of Mormont's men have returned as yet. Marsh fears the wildlings
have killed them, and that the Wall itself may be attacked next." He fumbled in his robe and found the
paper. "Here is his letter, my lord, a plea to all five kings. He wants men, as many men as we can send
him."
"Five kings?" His father was annoyed. "There is one king in Westeros. Those fools in black might try and


remember that if they wish His Grace to heed them. When you reply, tell him that Renly is dead and the
others are traitors and pretenders."
"No doubt they will be glad to learn it. The Wall is a world apart, and news oft reaches them late."
Pycelle bobbed his head up and down. "What shall I tell Marsh concerning the men he begs for? Shall
we convene the council . . .
"There is no need. The Night's Watch is a pack of thieves, killers, and baseborn churls, but it occurs to
me that they could prove otherwise, given proper discipline. If Mormont is indeed dead, the black
brothers must choose a new Lord Commander."
Pycelle gave Tyrion a sly glance. "An excellent thought, my lord. I know the very man. Janos Slynt."
Tyrion liked that notion not at all. "The black brothers choose their own commander," he reminded them.
"Lord Slynt is new to the Wall. I know, I sent him there. Why should they pick him over a dozen more
senior men?"
"Because," his father said, in a tone that suggested Tyrion was quite the simpleton, "if they do not vote as
they are told, their Wall will melt before it sees another man."
Yes, that would work. Tyrion hitched forward. "Janos Slynt is the wrong man, Father. We'd do better
with the commander of the Shadow Tower. Or Eastwatch-by-the-Sea."
"The commander of the Shadow Tower is a Mallister of Seagard. Eastwatch is held by an ironman."
Neither would serve his purposes, Lord Tywin's tone said clear enough.
"Janos Slynt is a butcher's son," Tyrion reminded his father forcefully. "You yourself told me - "
"I recall what I told you. Castle Black is not Harrenhal, however. The Night's Watch is not the king's
council. There is a tool for every task, and a task for every tool."
Tyrion's anger flashed. "Lord Janos is a hollow suit of armor who will sell himself to the highest bidder."
"I count that a point in his favor. Who is like to bid higher than us?" He turned to Pycelle. "Send a raven.
Write that King Joffrey was deeply saddened to hear of Lord Commander Mormont's death, but regrets
that he can spare no men just now, whilst so many rebels and usurpers remain in the field. Suggest that
matters might be quite different once the throne is secure ... provided the king has full confidence in the
leadership of the Watch. In closing, ask Marsh to pass along His Grace's fondest regards to his faithful
friend and servant ., Lord Janos Slynt."
"Yes, my lord." Pycelle bobbed his withered head once more. "I shall write as the Hand commands.
With great pleasure."
I should have trimmed his head, not his beard, Tyrion reflected. And Slynt should have gone for a swim
with his dear friend Allar Deem. At least he had not made the same foolish mistake with Symon Silver
Tongue. See there, Father? he wanted to shout. See how fast I learn my lessons?
Chapter 33


SAMWELL
Up in the loft a woman was giving birth noisily, while below a man lay dying by the fire. Samwell Tarly
could not say which frightened him more.
They'd covered poor Barmen with a pile of furs and stoked the fire high, yet all he could say was, "I'm
cold. Please. I'm so cold." Sam was trying to feed him onion broth, but he could not swallow. The broth
dribbled over his lips and down his chin as fast as Sam could spoon it in.
"That one's dead." Craster eyed the man with indifference as he worried at a sausage. "Be kinder to
stick a knife in his chest than that spoon down his throat, you ask me."
"I don't recall as we did." Giant was no more than five feet tall - his true name was Bedwyck - but a
fierce little man for all that. "Slayer, did you ask Craster for his counsel?"
Sam cringed at the name, but shook his head. He filled another spoon, brought it to Barmen's mouth,
and tried to ease it between his lips.
"Food and fire," Giant was saying, "that was all we asked of you. And you grudge us the food."
"Be glad I didn't grudge you fire too." Craster was a thick man made thicker by the ragged smelly
sheepskins he wore day and night. He had a broad flat nose, a mouth that drooped to one side, and a
missing ear. And though his matted hair and tangled beard might be grey going white, his hard knuckly
hands still looked strong enough to hurt. "I fed you what I could, but you crows are always hungry. I'm a
godly man, else I would have chased you off. You think I need the likes of him, dying on
my floor? You think I need all your mouths, little man?" The wildling spat. "Crows. When did a black
bird ever bring good to a man's hall, I ask you? Never. Never."
More broth ran from the comer of Barmen's mouth. Sam dabbed it away with a corner of his sleeve.
The ranger's eyes were open but unseeing. "I'm cold," he said again, so faintly. A maester might have
known how to save him, but they had no maester. Kedge Whiteye had taken Barmen's mangled foot off
nine days past, in a gout of pus and blood that made Sam sick, but it was too little, too late. "I'm so
cold," the pale lips repeated.
About the hall, a ragged score of black brothers squatted on the floor or sat on rough-hewn benches,
drinking cups of the same thin onion broth and gnawing on chunks of hardbread. A couple were
wounded worse than Bannen, to look at them. Fornio had been delirious for days, and Ser Byam's
shoulder was oozing a foul yellow pus. When they'd left Castle Black, Brown Bernarr had been carrying
bags of Myrish fire, mustard salve, ground garlic, tansy, poppy, kingscopper, and other healing herbs.
Even sweetsleep, which gave the gift of painless death. But Brown Bernarr had died on the Fist and no
one had thought to search for Maester Aemon's medicines. Hake had known some herblore as well,
being a cook, but Hake was also lost. So it was left to the surviving stewards to do what they could for
the wounded, which was little enough. At least they are dry here, with a fire to warm them. They need
more food, though.
They all needed more food. The men had been grumbling for days. Clubfoot Karl kept saying how
Craster had to have a hidden larder, and Garth of Oldtown had begun to echo him, when he was out of
the Lord Commander's hearing. Sam had thought of begging for something more nourishing for the


wounded men at least, but he did not have the courage. Craster's eyes were cold and mean, and
whenever the wildling looked his way his hands twitched a little, as if they wanted to curl up into fists.
Does he know I spoke to Gilly, the last time we were here? he wondered. Did she tell him I said we'd
take her? Did he beat it out of her?
"I'm cold," said Barmen. "Please. I'm cold.,,
For all the heat and smoke in Craster's hall, Sam felt cold himself. And tired, so tired. He needed sleep,
but whenever he closed his eyes he dreamed of blowing snow and dead men shambling toward him with
black hands and bright blue eyes.
Up in the loft, Gilly let out a shuddering sob that echoed down the long low windowless hall. "Push," he
heard one of Craster's older wives tell her. "Harder. Harder. Scream if it helps." She did, so loud it made
Sam wince.
Craster turned his head to glare. "I've had a bellyful o' that shrieking,"
he shouted up. "Give her a rag to bite down on, or I'll come up there and give her a taste o' my hand."
He would too, Sam knew. Craster had nineteen wives, but none who'd dare interfere once he started up
that ladder. No more than the black brothers had two nights past, when he was beating one of the
younger girls. There had been mutterings, to be sure. "He's killing her " Garth of Greenaway had said,
and Clubfoot Karl laughed and said, "If he don't want the little sweetmeat he could give her to me." Black
Bernarr cursed in a low angry voice, and Alan of Rosby got up and went outside so he wouldn't have to
hear. "His roof, his rule," the ranger Ronnel Harclay had reminded them. "Craster's a friend to the
Watch."
A friend, thought Sam, as he listened to Gilly's muffled shrieks. Craster was a brutal man who ruled his
wives and daughters with an iron hand, but his keep was a refuge all the same. "Frozen crows," Craster
sneered when they straggled in, those few who had survived the snow, the wights, and the bitter cold.
"And not so big a flock as went north, neither." Yet he had given them space on his floor, a roof to keep
the snow off, a fire to dry them out, and his wives had brought them cups of hot wine to put some
warmth in their bellies. "Bloody crows," he called them, but he'd fed them too, meager though the fare
might be.
We are guests, Sam reminded himself. Gilly is his. His daughter, his wife. His roof, his rule.
The first time he'd seen Craster's Keep, Gilly had come begging for help, and Sam had lent her his black
cloak to conceal her belly when she went to find Jon Snow. Knights are supposed to defend women and
children. Only a few of the black brothers were knights, but even so ... We all say the words, Sam
thought. I am the shield that guards the realms of men. A woman was a woman, even a wildling woman.
We should help her. We should. It was her child Gilly feared for; she was frightened that it might be a
boy. Craster raised up his daughters to be his wives, but there were neither men nor boys to be seen
about his compound. Gilly had told Jon that Craster gave his sons to the gods. If the gods are good, they
will send her a daughter, Sam prayed.
Up in the loft, Gilly choked back a scream. "That's it," a woman said. "Another push, now. Oh, I see his
head."
Hers, Sam thought miserably. Her head, hers.


"Cold," said Barmen, weakly. "Please. I'm so cold." Sam put the bowl and spoon aside, tossed another
fur across the dying man, put another stick on the fire. Gilly gave a shriek, and began to pant. Craster
gnawed on his hard black sausage. He had sausages for himself and his wives, he said, but none for the
Watch. "Women," he complained. "The way they wail ... I had me a fat sow once birthed a litter of eight
with no more'n
a grunt." Chewing, he turned his head to squint contemptuously at Sam. "She was near as fat as you,
boy. Slayer." He laughed.
It was more than Sam could stand. He stumbled away from the firepit, stepping awkwardly over and
around the men sleeping and squatting and dying upon the hard-packed earthen floor. The smoke and
screams and moans were making him feel faint. Bending his head, he pushed through the hanging
deerhide flaps that served Craster for a door and stepped out into the afternoon.
The day was cloudy, but still bright enough to blind him after the gloom of the hall. Some patches of
snow weighed down the limbs of surrounding trees and blanketed the gold and russet hills, but fewer than
there had been. The storm had passed on, and the days at Craster's Keep had been ... well, not warm
perhaps, but not so bitter cold. Sam could hear the soft drip-drip-drip of water melting off the icicles that
bearded the edge of the thick sod roof. He took a deep shuddering breath and looked around.
To the west Ollo Lophand and Tim Stone were moving through the horselines, feeding and watering the
remaining garrons.
Downwind, other brothers were skinning and butchering the animals deemed too weak to go on.
Spearmen and archers walked sentry behind the earthen dikes that were Craster's only defense against
whatever hid in the wood beyond, while a dozen firepits sent up thick fingers of blue-grey smoke. Sam
could hear the distant echoes of axes at work in the forest, where a work detail was harvesting enough
wood to keep the blazes burning all through the night. Nights were the bad time. When it got dark. And
cold.
There had been no attacks while they had been at Craster's, neither wights nor Others. Nor would there
be, Craster said. "A godly man got no cause to fear such. I said as much to that Mance Rayder once,
when he come sniffing round. He never listened, no more'n you crows with your swords and your bloody
fires. That won't help you none when the white cold comes. Only the gods will help you then. You best
get right with the gods."
Gilly had spoken of the white cold as well, and she'd told them what sort of offerings Craster made to
his gods. Sam had wanted to kill him when he heard. There are no laws beyond the Wall, he reminded
himself, and Craster's a friend to the Watch.
A ragged shout went up from behind the daub-and-wattle hall. Sam went to take a look. The ground
beneath his feet was a slush of melting snow and soft mud that Dolorous Edd insisted was made of
Craster's shit. It was thicker than shit, though; it sucked at Sam's boots so hard he felt one pull loose.
Back of a vegetable garden and empty sheepfold, a dozen black brothers were loosing arrows at a butt
they'd built of hay and straw. The slender
blond steward they called Sweet Donnel had laid a shaft just off the bull's eye at fifty yards. "Best that,
old man," he said.
"Aye. I will." Ulmer, stooped and grey-bearded and loose of skin and limb, stepped to the mark and


pulled an arrow from the quiver at his waist. In his youth he had been an outlaw, a member of the
infamous Kingswood Brotherhood. He claimed he'd once put an arrow through the hand of the White
Bull of the Kingsguard to steal a kiss from the lips of a Dornish princess. He had stolen her jewels too,
and a chest of golden dragons, but it was the kiss he liked to boast of in his cups.
He notched and drew, all smooth as summer silk, then let fly. His shaft struck the butt an inch inside of
Donnel Hill's. "Will that do, lad?" he asked, stepping back.
"Well enough," said the younger man, grudgingly. "The crosswind helped you. It blew more strongly
when I loosed."
"You ought to have allowed for it, then. You have a good eye and a steady hand, but you'll need a deal
more to best a man of the kingswood. Fletcher Dick it was who showed me how to bend the bow, and
no finer archer ever lived. Have I told you about old Dick, now?"
"Only three hundred times." Every man at Castle Black had heard Ulmer's tales of the great outlaw band
of yore; of Simon Toyne and the Smiling Knight, Oswyn Longneck the Thrice-Hanged, Wenda the
White Fawn, Fletcher Dick, Big Belly Ben, and all the rest. Searching for escape, Sweet Donnel looked
about and spied Sam standing in the muck. "Slayer," he called. "Come, show us how you slew the
Other." He held out the tall yew longbow.
Sam turned red. "It wasn't an arrow, it was a dagger, dragonglass . . .
He knew what would happen if he took the bow. He would miss the butt and send the arrow sailing
over the dike off into the trees. Then he'd hear the laughter.
"No matter," said Alan of Rosby, another fine bowman. "We're all keen to see the Slayer shoot. Aren't
we, lads?"
He could not face them; the mocking smiles, the mean little jests, the contempt in their eyes. Sam turned
to go back the way he'd come, but his right foot sank deep in the muck, and when he tried to pull it out
his boot came off. He had to kneel to wrench it free, laughter ringing in his ears. Despite all his socks, the
snowmelt had soaked through to his toes by the time he made his escape. Useless, he thought miserably.
My father saw me true. I have no right to be alive when so many brave men are dead.
Grenn was tending the firepit south of the compound gate, stripped to the waist as he split logs. His face
was red with exertion, the sweat steaming off his skin. But he grinned as Sam came chuffing up. "The
Others get your boot, Slayer?"
Him too? "It was the mud. Please don't call me that."
"Why not?" Grenn sounded honestly puzzled. "It's a good name, and you came by it fairly."
Pyp always teased Grenn about being thick as a castle wall, so Sam explained patiently. "It's just a
different way of calling me a coward," he said, standing on his left leg and wriggling back into his muddy
boot. "They're mocking me, the same way they mock Bedwyck by calling him 'Giant."'
"He's not a giant, though," said Grenn, "and Paul was never small. Well, maybe when he was a babe at
the breast, but not after. You did slay the Other, though, so it's not the same."
"I just ... I never ... I was seared!"


"No more than me. It's only Pyp who says I'm too dumb to be frightened. I get as frightened as anyone."
Grenn bent to scoop up a split log, and tossed it into the fire. "I used to be scared of Jon, whenever I had
to fight him. He was so quick, and he fought like he meant to kill me." The green damp wood sat in the
flames, smoking before it took fire. "I never said, though. Sometimes I think everyone is just pretending
to be brave, and none of us really are. Maybe pretending is how you get brave, I don't know. Let them
call you Slayer, who cares?"
"You never liked Ser Alliser to call you Aurochs."
"He was saying I was big and stupid." Grenn scratched at his beard. "If Pyp wanted to call me Aurochs,
though, he could. Or you, or Jon. An aurochs is a fierce strong beast, so that's not so bad, and I am big,
and getting bigger. Wouldn't you rather be Sam the Slayer than Ser Piggy?"
"Why can't I just be Samwell Tarly?" He sat down heavily on a wet log that Grenn had yet to split. "It
was the dragonglass that slew it. Not me, the dragonglass."
He had told them. He had told them all. Some of them didn't believe him, he knew. Dirk had shown Sam
his dirk and said, "I got iron, what do I want with glass?" Black Bernarr and the three Garths made it
plain that they doubted his whole story, and Rolley of Sisterton came right out and said, "More like you
stabbed some rustling bushes and it turned out to be Small Paul taking a shit, so you came up with a lie."
But Dywen listened, and Dolorous Edd, and they made Sam and Grenn tell the Lord Commander.
Mormont frowned all through the tale and asked pointed questions, but he was too cautious a man to
shun any possible advantage. He asked Sam for all the dragonglass in his pack, though that was little
enough. Whenever Sam thought of the cache Jon had found buried beneath the Fist, it made him want to
cry. There'd been dagger blades and spearheads, and two or three hundred arrowheads at least. Jon had
made daggers for himself, Sam, and Lord Commander
Mormont, and he'd given Sam a spearhead, an old broken horn, and some arrowheads. Grenn had
taken a handful of arrowheads as well, but that was all.
So now all they had was Mormont's dagger and the one Sam had given Grenn, plus nineteen arrows and
a tall hardwood spear with a black dragonglass head. The sentries passed the spear along from watch to
watch, while Mormont had divided the arrows among his best bowmen. Muttering Bill, Garth
Greyfeather, Ronnel Harclay, Sweet Donnel Hill, and Alan of Rosby had three apiece, and Ulmer had
four. But even if they made every shaft tell, they'd soon be down to fire arrows like all the rest. They had
loosed hundreds of fire arrows on the Fist, yet still the wights kept coming.
It will not be enough, Sam thought. Craster's sloping palisades of mud and melting snow would hardly
slow the wights, who'd climbed the much steeper slopes of the Fist to swarm over the ringwall. And
instead of three hundred brothers drawn up in disciplined ranks to meet them, the wights would find
forty-one ragged survivors, nine too badly hurt to fight. Forty-four had come straggling into Craster's out
of the storm, out of the sixty-odd who'd cut their way free of the Fist, but three of those had died of their
wounds, and Bannen would soon make four.
"Do you think the wights are gone?" Sam asked Grenn. "Why don't they come finish us?"
"They only come when it's cold."
"Yes," said Sam, "but is it the cold that brings the wights, or the wights that bring the cold?"


"Who cares?" Grenn's axe sent wood chips flying. "They come together, that's what matters. Hey, now
that we know that dragonglass kills them, maybe they won't come at all. Maybe they're frightened of us
now!"
Sam wished he could believe that, but it seemed to him that when you were dead, fear had no more
meaning than pain or love or duty. He wrapped his hands around his legs, sweating under his layers of
wool and leather and fur. The dragonglass dagger had melted the pale thing in the woods, true ... but
Grenn was talking like it would do the same to the wights. We don't know that, he thought. We don't
know anything, really. I wish Ion was here. He liked Grenn, but he couldn't talk to him the same way. Ion
wouldn't call me Slayer, I know And I could talk to him about Gilly's baby. Jon had ridden off with
Qhorin Halfhand, though, and they'd had no word of him since. He had a dragonglass dagger too, but did
he think to use it? Is he lying dead and frozen in some ravine ... or worse, is he dead and walking?
He could not understand why the gods would want to take Jon Snow and Barmen and leave him, craven
and clumsy as he was. He should have
died on the Fist, where he'd pissed himself three times and lost his sword besides. And he would have
died in the woods if Small Paul had not come along to carry him. I wish it was all a dream. Then I could
wake up. How flne that would be, to wake back on the Fist of the First Men with all his brothers still
around him, even Jon and Ghost. Or even better, to wake in Castle Black behind the Wall and go to the
common room for a bowl of Three-Finger Hobb's thick cream of wheat, with a big spoon of butter
melting in the middle and a dollop of honey besides. just the thought of it made his empty stomach
rumble.
"Snow."
Sam glanced up at the sound. Lord Commander Mormont's raven was circling the fire, beating the air
with wide black wings.
"Snow," the bird cawed. "Snow, snow"
Wherever the raven went, Mormont soon followed. The Lord Commander emerged from beneath the
trees, mounted on his garron between old Dywen and the fox-faced ranger Ronnel Harclay, who'd been
raised to Thoren Smallwood's place. The spearmen at the gate shouted a challenge, and the Old Bear
returned a gruff, "Who in seven hells do you think goes there? Did the Others take your eyes?" He rode
between the gateposts, one bearing a ram's skull and the other the skull of a bear, then reined up, raised
a fist, and whistled. The raven came flapping down at his call.
"My lord," Sam heard Ronnel Harclay say, "we have only twenty-two mounts, and I doubt half will
reach the Wall."
"I know that," Mormont grumbled. "We must go all the same. Craster's made that plain." He glanced to
the west, where a bank of dark clouds hid the sun. "The gods gave us a respite, but for how long?"
Mormont swung down from the saddle, jolting his raven back into the air. He saw Sam then, and
bellowed, "Tarly!"
"Me?" Sam got awkwardly to his feet.
"Me?" The raven landed on the old man's head. "Me?"


"Is your name Tarly? Do you have a brother hereabouts? Yes, you. Close your mouth and come with
me."
"With you?" The words tumbled out in a squeak.
Lord Commander Mormont gave him a withering look. "You are a man of the Night's Watch. Try not to
soil your smallclothes every time I look at you. Come, I said." His boots made squishing sounds in the
mud, and Sam had to hurry to keep up. "I've been thinking about this dragonglass of yours."
"It's not mine," Sam said.
"Jon Snow's dragonglass, then. if dragonglass daggers are what we need, why do we have only two of
them? Every man on the Wall should be armed with one the day he says his words."
"We never knew..."
"We never knew! But we must have known once. The Night's Watch has forgotten its true purpose,
Tarly. You don't build a wall seven hundred feet high to keep savages in skins from stealing women. The
Wall was made to guard the realms of men ... and not against other men, which is all the wildlings are
when you come right down to it. Too many years, Tarly, too many hundreds and thousands of years. We
lost sight of the true enemy. And now he's here, but we don't know how to fight him. Is dragonglass
made by dragons, as the smallfolk like to say?"
"The m-maesters think not," Sam stammered. "The maesters say it comes from the fires of the earth.
They call it obsidian."
Mormont snorted. "They can call it lemon pie for all I care. If it kills as you claim, I want more of it."
Sam stumbled. "Jon found more, on the Fist. Hundreds of arrowheads, spearheads as well..."
"So you said. Small good it does us there. To reach the Fist again we'd need to be armed with the
weapons we won't have until we reach the bloody Fist. And there are still the wildlings to deal with. We
need to find dragonglass someplace else."
Sam had almost forgotten about the wildlings, so much had happened since. "The children of the forest
used dragonglass blades," he said. "They'd know where to find obsidian."
"The children of the forest are all dead," said Mormont. "The First Men killed half of them with bronze
blades, and the Andals finished the job with iron. Why a glass dagger should - "
The Old Bear broke off as Craster emerged from between the deerhide flaps of his door. The wildling
smiled, revealing a mouth of brown rotten teeth. "I have a son."
"Son," cawed Mormont's raven. "Son, son, son."
The Lord Commander's face was stiff. "I'm glad for you."
"Are you, now? Me, I'll be glad when you and yours are gone. Past time, I'm thinking."
"As soon as our wounded are strong enough..."


"They're strong as they're like to get, old crow, and both of us know it. Them that's dying, you know
them too, cut their bloody throats and be done with it. Or leave them, if you don't have the stomach, and
I'll sort them out myself."
Lord Commander Mormont bristled. "Thoren Smallwood claimed you were a friend to the Watch - "
"Aye," said Craster. "I gave you all I could spare, but winter's coming on, and now the girl's stuck me
with another squalling mouth to feed."
"We could take him," someone squeaked.
Craster's head turned. His eyes narrowed. He spat on Sam's foot. "What did you say, Slayer?"
Sam opened and closed his mouth. "I ... I ... I only meant ... if you didn't want him ... his mouth to feed
... with winter coming on, we ... we could take him, and..."
"My son. My blood. You think I'd give him to you crows?"
"I only thought..." You have no sons, you expose them, Gilly said as much, you leave them in the woods,
that's why you have only wives here, and daughters who grow up to be wives.
"Be quiet, Sam," said Lord Commander Mormont. "You've said enough. Too much. Inside."
"M-my lord -
"Inside!"
Red-faced, Sam pushed through the deerhides, back into the gloom of the hall. Mormont followed.
"How great a fool are you?" the old man said within, his voice choked and angry. "Even if Craster gave
us the child, he'd be dead before we reached the Wall. We need a newborn babe to care for near as
much as we need more snow. Do you have milk to feed him in those big teats of yours? Or did you mean
to take the mother too?"
"She wants to come," Sam said. "She begged me..."
Mormont raised a hand. "I will hear no more of this, Tarly. You've been told and told to stay well away
from Craster's wives."
"She's his daughter," Sam said feebly.
"Go see to Barmen. Now. Before you make me wroth."
"Yes, my lord." Sam hurried off quivering.
But when he reached the fire, it was only to find Giant pulling a fur cloak up over Barmen's head. "He
said he was cold," the small man said. "I hope he's gone someplace warm, I do."
"His wound..." said Sam.
"Bugger his wound." Dirk prodded the corpse with his foot. "His foot was hurt. I knew a man back in
my village lost a foot. He lived to nine-and-forty."


"The cold," said Sam. "He was never warm."
"He was never fed," said Dirk. "Not proper. That bastard Craster starved him dead."
Sam looked around anxiously, but Craster had not returned to the hall. if he had, things might have
grown ugly. The wildling hated bastards, though the rangers said he was baseborn himself, fathered on a
wildling woman by some long-dead crow.
"Craster's got his own to feed," said Giant. "All these women. He's given us what he can."
"Don't you bloody believe it. The day we leave, he'll tap a keg o' mead and sit down to feast on ham and
honey. And laugh at us, out starving in the snow. He's a bloody wildling, is all he is. There's none o' them
friends of the Watch." He kicked at Bannen's corpse. "Ask him if you don't believe me."
They burned the ranger's corpse at sunset, in the fire that Grenn had been feeding earlier that day. Tim
Stone and Garth of Oldtown carried out the naked corpse and swung him twice between them before
heaving him into the flames. The surviving brothers divided up his clothes, his weapons, his armor, and
everything else he owned. At Castle Black, the Night's Watch buried its dead with all due ceremony.
They were not at Castle Black, though. And bones do not come back as wights.
"His name was Bannen," Lord Commander Mormont said, as the flames took him. "He was a brave
man, a good ranger. He came to us from ... where did he come from?"
"Down White Harbor way," someone called out.
Mormont nodded. "He came to us from White Harbor, and never failed in his duty. He kept his vows as
best he could, rode far, fought fiercely. We shall never see his like again."
"And now his watch is ended," the black brothers said, in solemn chant.
"And now his watch is ended," Mormont echoed.
"Ended," cried his raven. "Ended."
Sam was red-eyed and sick from the smoke. When he looked at the fire, he thought he saw Bannen
sitting up, his hands coiling into fists as if to fight off the flames that were consuming him, but it was only
for an instant, before the swirling smoke hid all. The worst thing was the smell, though. If it had been a
foul unpleasant smell he might have stood it, but his burning brother smelled so much like roast pork that
Sam's mouth began to water, and that was so horrible that as soon as the bird squawked "Ended" he ran
behind the hall to throw up in the ditch.
He was there on his knees in the mud when Dolorous Edd came up. "Digging for worms, Sam? Or are
you just sick?"
"Sick," said Sam weakly, wiping his mouth with the back of his hand. "The smell . . . "
"Never knew Bannen could smell so good." Edd's tone was as morose as ever. "I had half a mind to
carve a slice off him. If we had some applesauce, I might have done it. Pork's always best with
applesauce, I find." Edd undid his laces and pulled out his cock. "You best not die, Sam, or I fear I might


succumb. There's bound to be more crackling on you than Bannen ever had, and I never could resist a
bit of crackling." He sighed as his piss arced out, yellow and steaming. "We ride at first light, did you
hear? Sun or snow, the Old Bear tells me."
Sun or snow. Sam glanced up anxiously at the sky. "Snow?" he squeaked. "We ... ride? All of us?"
"Well, no, some will need to walk." He shook himself. "Dywen now, he says we need to learn to ride
dead horses, like the Others do. He claims it would save on feed. How much could a dead horse eat?"
Edd laced himself back up. "Can't say I fancy the notion. Once they figure a way to work a dead horse,
we'll be next. Likely I'll be the first too. 'Edd' they'll say, 'dying's no excuse for lying down no more, so
get on up and take this spear, you've got the watch tonight.' Well, I shouldn't be so gloomy. Might be I'll
die before they work it out."
Might be we'll all die, and sooner than we'd like, Sam thought, as he climbed awkwardly to his feet.
When Craster learned that his unwanted guests would be departing on the morrow, the wildling became
almost amiable, or as close to amiable as Craster ever got. "Past time," he said, "you don't belong here, I
told you that. All the same, I'll see you off proper, with a feast. Well, a feed. My wives can roast them
horses you slaughtered, and I'll find some beer and bread." He smiled his brown smile. "Nothing better
than beer and horsemeat. If you can't ride 'em, eat 'em, that's what I say."
His wives and daughters dragged out the benches and the long log tables, and cooked and served as
well. Except for Gilly, Sam could hardly tell the women apart. Some were old and some were young and
some were only girls, but a lot of them were Craster's daughters as well as his wives, and they all looked
sort of alike. As they went about their work, they spoke in soft voices to each other, but never to the
men in black.
Craster owned but one chair. He sat in it, clad in a sleeveless sheepskin jerkin. His thick arms were
covered with white hair, and about one wrist was a twisted ring of gold. Lord Commander Mormont
took the place at the top of the bench to his right, while the brothers crowded in knee to knee; a dozen
remained outside to guard the gate and tend the fires.
Sam found a place between Grenn and Orphan Oss, his stomach rumbling. The charred horsemeat
dripped with grease as Craster's wives turned the spits above the firepit, and the smell of it set his mouth
to watering again, but that reminded him of Barmen. Hungry as he was, Sam knew he would retch if he
so much as tried a bite. How could they eat the poor faithful garrons who had carried them so far? When
Craster's wives brought onions, he seized one eagerly. One side was black with rot, but he cut that part
off with his dagger and ate the good half raw. There was bread as well, but only two loaves. When
Ulmer asked for more, the woman only shook her head. That was when the trouble started.
"Two loaves?" Clubfoot Karl complained from down the bench. "How stupid are you women? We need
more bread than this!"
Lord Commander Mormont gave him a hard look. "Take what you're given, and be thankful. Would
you sooner be out in the storm eating snow? "
"We'll be there soon enough." Clubfoot Karl did not flinch from the Old Bear's wrath. "I'd sooner eat
what Craster's hiding, my lord."
Craster narrowed his eyes. "I gave you crows enough. I got me women to feed."


Dirk speared a chunk of horsemeat. "Aye. So you admit you got a secret larder. How else to make it
through a winter?"
"I'm a godly man..." Craster started.
"You're a niggardly man," said Karl, "and a liar."
"Hams," Garth of Oldtown said, in a reverent voice. "There were pigs, last time we come. I bet he's got
hams hid someplace. Smoked and salted hams, and bacon too."
"Sausage," said Dirk. "Them long black ones, they're like rocks, they keep for years. I bet he's got a
hundred hanging in some cellar."
"Oats," suggested Ollo Lophand. "Corn. Barley."
"Corn," said Mormont's raven, with a flap of the wings. "Corn, corn, corn, corn, corn."
"Enough," said Lord Commander Mormont over the bird's raucous calls. "Be quiet, all of you. This is
folly."
"Apples," said Garth of Greenaway. "Barrels and barrels of crisp autumn apples. There are apple trees
out there, I saw 'em."
"Dried berries. Cabbages. Pine nuts."
"Corn. Corn. Corn."
"Salt mutton. There's a sheepfold. He's got casks and casks of mutton laid by, you know he does."
Craster looked fit to spit them all by then. Lord Commander Mormont rose. "Silence. I'll hear no more
such talk.-
"Then stuff bread in your cars, old man." Clubfoot Karl pushed back from the table. "Or did you
swallow your bloody crumb already?"
Sam saw the Old Bear's face go red. "Have you forgotten who I am? Sit, eat, and be silent. That is a
command."
No one spoke. No one moved. All eyes were on the Lord Commander and the big clubfooted ranger,
as the two of them stared at each other across the table. It seemed to Sam that Karl broke first, and was
about to sit, though sullenly ...
... but Craster stood, and his axe was in his hand. The big black steel axe that Mormont had given him
as a guest gift. "No," he growled. "You'll not sit. No one who calls me niggard will sleep beneath my roof
nor eat at my board. Out with you, cripple. And you and you and you." He jabbed the head of the axe
toward Dirk and Garth and Garth in turn. "Go sleep in the cold with empty bellies, the lot o' you, or..."
"Bloody bastard!" Sam heard one of the Garths curse. He never saw which one.
"Who calls me bastard?" Craster roared, sweeping platter and meat and wine cups from the table with
his left hand while lifting the axe with his right.


"It's no more than all men know," Karl answered.
Craster moved quicker than Sam would have believed possible, vaulting across the table with axe in
hand. A woman screamed, Garth Greenaway and Orphan Oss drew knives, Karl stumbled back and
tripped over Ser Byarn lying wounded on the floor. One instant Craster was coming after him spitting
curses. The next he was spitting blood. Dirk had grabbed him by the hair, yanked his head back, and
opened his throat ear to ear with one long slash. Then he gave him a rough shove, and the wildling fell
forward, crashing face first across Ser Byam. Byam screamed in agony as Craster drowned in his own
blood, the axe slipping from his fingers. Two of Craster's wives were wailing, a third cursed, a fourth flew
at Sweet Donnel and tried to scratch his eyes out. He knocked her to the floor. The Lord Commander
stood over Craster's corpse, dark with anger. "The gods will curse us," he cried. "There is no crime so
foul as for a guest to bring murder into a man's hall. By all the laws of the hearth, we - "
"There are no laws beyond the Wall, old man. Remember?" Dirk grabbed one of Craster's wives by the
arm, and shoved the point of his bloody dirk up under her chin. "Show us where he keeps the food, or
you'll get the same as he did, woman."
"Unhand her." Mormont took a step. "I'll have your head for this, you - " Garth of Greenaway blocked
his path, and Ollo Lophand yanked him back. They both had blades in hand. "Hold your tongue," Ollo
warned. Instead the Lord Commander grabbed for his dagger. Ollo had only one hand, but that was
quick. He twisted free of the old man's grasp, shoved the knife into Mormont's belly, and yanked it out
again, all red. And then the world went mad.
Later, much later, Sam found himself sitting crosslegged on the floor, with Mormont's head in his lap. He
did not remember how they'd gotten there, or much of anything else that had happened after the Old
Bear was stabbed. Garth of Greenaway had killed Garth of Oldtown, he recalled, but not why. Rolley of
Sisterton had fallen from the loft and broken his neck after climbing the ladder to have a taste of Craster's
wives. Grenn ...
Grerm had shouted and slapped him, and then he'd run away with Giant and Dolorous Edd and some
others. Craster still sprawled across Ser Byam, but the wounded knight no longer moaned. Four men in
black sat on the bench eating chunks of burned horsemeat while Ollo coupled with a weeping woman on
the table.
"Tarly." When he tried to speak, the blood dribbled from the Old Bear's mouth down into his beard.
"Tarly, go. Go."
"Where, my lord?" His voice was flat and lifeless. I am not afraid. It was a queer feeling. "There's no
place to go."
"The Wall. Make for the Wall. Now."
"Now," squawked the raven. "Now Now" The bird walked up the old man's arm to his chest, and
plucked a hair from his beard.
"You must. Must tell them."
"Tell them what, my lord?" Sam asked politely.
"All. The Fist. The wildlings. Dragonglass. This. All." His breathing was very shallow now, his voice a


whisper. "Tell my son. Jorah. Tell him, take the black. My wish. Dying wish."
" Wish? " The raven cocked its head, beady black eyes shining. " Corn? the bird asked.
"No corn," said Mormont feebly. "Tell Jorah. Forgive him. My son. Please. Go."
"It's too far," said Sam. "I'll never reach the Wall, my lord." He was so very tired. All he wanted was to
sleep, to sleep and sleep and never wake, and he knew that if he just stayed here soon enough Dirk or
Ollo Lophand or Clubfoot Karl would get angry with him and grant his wish, just to see him die. "I'd
sooner stay with you. See, I'm not frightened anymore. Of you, or ... of anything."
"You should be," said a woman's voice.
Three of Craster's wives were standing over them. Two were haggard old women he did not know, but
Gilly was between them, all bundled up in skins and cradling a bundle of brown and white fur that must
have held her baby. "We're not supposed to talk to Craster's wives," Sam told them. "We have orders."
"That's done now," said the old woman on the right.
"The blackest crows are down in the cellar, gorging," said the old woman on the left, "or up in the loft
with the young ones. They'll be back soon, though. Best you be gone when they do. The horses run off,
but Dyah's caught two."
"You said you'd help me," Gilly reminded him.
"I said Jon would help you. Jon's brave, and he's a good fighter, but I think he's dead now. I'm a craven.
And fat. Look how fat I am. Besides, Lord Mormont's hurt. Can't you see? I couldn't leave the Lord
Commander."
"Child," said the other old woman, "that old crow's gone before you. Look."
Mormont's head was still in his lap, but his eyes were open and staring and his lips no longer moved. The
raven cocked its head and squawked, then looked up at Sam. "Corn?"
"No corn. He has no corn." Sam closed the Old Bear's eyes and tried to think of a prayer, but all that
came to mind was, "Mother have mercy. Mother have mercy. Mother have mercy."
"Your mother can't help you none," said the old woman on the left. "That dead old man can't neither.
You take his sword and you take that big warm far cloak o' his and you take his horse if you can find
him. And you go."
"The girl don't lie," the old woman on the right said. "She's my girl, and I beat the lying out of her early
on. You said you'd help her. Do what Ferny says, boy. Take the girl and be quick about it."
"Quick," the raven said. "Quick quick quick."
"Where?" asked Sam, puzzled. "Where should I take her?"
"Someplace warm," the two old women said as one.
Gilly was crying. "Me and the babe. Please. I'll be your wife, like I was Craster's. Please, ser crow. He's


a boy, just like Nella said he'd be. If you don't take him, they will."
"They?" said Sam, and the raven cocked its black head and echoed, "They They They "
"The boy's brothers," said the old woman on the left. "Craster's sons. The white cold's rising out there,
crow. I can feel it in my bones. These poor old bones don't lie. They'll be here soon, the sons."
Chapter 34
ARYA
Her eyes had grown accustomed to blackness. When Harwin pulled the hood off her head, the ruddy
glare inside the hollow hill made Arya blink like some stupid owl.
A huge firepit had been dug in the center of the earthen floor, and its flames rose swirling and crackling
toward the smoke-stained ceiling. The walls were equal parts stone and soil, with huge white roots
twisting through them like a thousand slow pale snakes. People were emerging from between those roots
as she watched; edging out from the shadows for a look at the captives, stepping from the mouths of
pitch-black tunnels, popping out of crannies and crevices on all sides. in one place on the far side of the
fire, the roots formed a kind of stairway up to a hollow in the earth where a man sat almost lost in the
tangle of weirwood.
Lem unhooded Gendry. "What is this place?" he asked.
"An old place, deep and secret. A refuge where neither wolves nor lions come prowling."
Neither wolves nor lions. Arya's skin prickled. She remembered the dream she'd had, and the taste of
blood when she tore the man's arm from his shoulder.
Big as the fire was, the cave was bigger; it was hard to tell where it began and where it ended. The
tunnel mouths might have been two feet deep or gone on two miles. Arya saw men and women and little
children, all of them watching her warily.
Greenbeard said, "Here's the wizard, skinny squirrel. You'll get your answers now." He pointed toward
the fire, where Tom Sevenstrings stood talking to a tall thin man with oddments of old armor buckled on
over
his ratty pink robes. That can't be Thoros of Myr. Arya remembered the red priest as fat, with a smooth
face and a shiny bald head. This man had a droopy face and a full head of shaggy grey hair. Something
Tom said made him look at her, and Arya thought he was about to come over to her. Only then the Mad
Huntsman appeared, shoving his captive down into the light, and she and Gendry were forgotten.
The Huntsman had turned out to be a stocky man in patched tan leathers, balding and weak-chinned and
quarrelsome. At Stoney Sept she had thought that Lem and Greenbeard might be tom to pieces when
they faced him at the crow cages to claim his captive for the lightning lord. The hounds had been all
around them, sniffing and snarling. But Tom o' Sevens soothed them with his playing, Tansy marched
across the square with her apron full of bones and fatty mutton, and Lem pointed out Anguy in the


brothel window, standing with an arrow notched. The Mad Huntsman had cursed them all for lickspittles,
but finally he had agreed to take his prize to Lord Beric for judgment.
They had bound his wrists with hempen rope, strung a noose around his neck, and pulled a sack down
over his head, but even so there was danger in the man. Arya could feel it across the cave. Thoros - if
that was Thoros - met captor and captive halfway to the fire. "How did you take him?" the priest asked.
"The dogs caught the scent. He was sleeping off a drunk under a willow tree, if you believe it."
"Betrayed by his own kind." Thoros turned to the prisoner and yanked his hood off. "Welcome to our
humble hall, dog. It is not so grand as Robert's throne room, but the company is better."
The shifting flames painted Sandor Clegane's burned face with orange shadows, so he looked even more
terrible than he did in daylight. When he pulled at the rope that bound his wrists, flakes of dry blood fell
off. The Hound's mouth twitched. "I know you," he said to Thoros.
"You did. In melees, you'd curse my flaming sword, though thrice I overthrew you with it."
"Thoros of Myr. You used to shave your head."
"To betoken a humble heart, but in truth my heart was vain. Besides, I lost my razor in the woods." The
priest slapped his belly. "I am less than I was, but more. A year in the wild will melt the flesh off a man.
Would that I could find a tailor to take in my skin. I might look young again, and pretty maids would
shower me with kisses."
"Only the blind ones, priest."
The outlaws hooted, none so loud as Thoros. "Just so. Yet I am not the false priest you knew. The Lord
of Light has woken in my heart. Many powers long asleep are waking, and there are forces moving in the
land. I have seen them in my flames."
The Hound was unimpressed. "Bugger your flames. And you as well." He looked around at the others.
"You keep queer company for a holy man."
"These are my brothers," Thoros said simply.
Lem Lemoncloak pushed forward. He and Greenbeard were the only men there tall enough to look the
Hound in the eye. "Be careful how you bark, dog. We hold your life in our hands."
"Best wipe the shit off your fingers, then." The Hound laughed. "How long have you been hiding in this
hole?"
Anguy the Archer bristled at the suggestion of cowardice. "Ask the goat if we've hidden, Hound. Ask
your brother. Ask the lord of leeches. We've bloodied them all."
"You lot? Don't make me laugh. You look more swineherds than soldiers."
"Some of us was swineherds," said a short man Arya did not know. "And some was tanners or singers
or masons. But that was before the war come."
"When we left King's Landing we were men of Winterfell and men of Darry and men of Blackhaven,


Mallery men and Wylde men. We were knights and squires and men-at-arms, lords and commoners,
bound together only by our purpose." The voice came from the man seated amongst the weirwood roots
halfway up the wall. "Six score of us set out to bring the king's justice to your brother." The speaker was
descending the tangle of steps toward the floor. "Six score brave men and true, led by a fool in a starry
cloak." A scarecrow of a man, he wore a ragged black cloak speckled with stars and an iron breastplate
dinted by a hundred battles. A thicket of red-gold hair hid most of his face, save for a bald spot above
his left ear where his head had been smashed in. "More than eighty of our company are dead now, but
others have taken up the swords that fell from their hands." When he reached the floor, the outlaws
moved aside to let him pass. One of his eyes was gone, Arya saw, the flesh about the socket scarred and
puckered, and he had a dark black ring all around his neck. "With their help, we fight on as best we can,
for Robert and the realm."
"Robert?" rasped Sandor Clegane, incredulous.
"Ned Stark sent us out," said pothelmed Jack-Be-Lucky, "but he was sitting the Iron Throne when he
gave us our commands, so we were never truly his men, but Robert's."
"Robert is the king of the worms now. Is that why you're down in the earth, to keep his court for him?"
"The king is dead," the scarecrow knight admitted, "but we are still king's men, though the royal banner
we bore was lost at the Mummer's Ford when your brother's butchers fell upon us." He touched his
breast with a fist. "Robert is slain, but his realm remains. And we defend her."
"Her?" The Hound snorted. "Is she your mother, Dondarrion? Or your whore? "
Dondarrion? Beric Dondarrion had been handsome; Sansa's friend Jeyne had fallen in love with him.
Even Jeyne Poole was not so blind as to think this man was fair. Yet when Arya looked at him again, she
saw it; the remains of a forked purple lightning bolt on the cracked enamel of his breastplate.
"Rocks and trees and rivers, that's what your realm is made of," the Hound was saying. "Do the rocks
need defending? Robert wouldn't have thought so. If he couldn't fuck it, fight it, or drink it, it bored him,
and so would you ... you brave companions."
Outrage swept the hollow hill. "Call us that name again, dog, and you'll swallow that tongue." Lem drew
his longsword.
The Hound stared at the blade with contempt. "Here's a brave man, baring steel on a bound captive.
Untie me, why don't you? We'll see how brave you are then." He glanced at the Mad Huntsman behind
him. "How about you? Or did you leave all your courage in your kennels?"
"No, but I should have left you in a crow cage." The Huntsman drew a knife. "I might still."
The Hound laughed in his face.
"We are brothers here," Thoros of Myr declared. "Holy brothers, sworn to the realm, to our god, and to
each other."
"The brotherhood without banners." Tom Sevenstrings plucked a string. "The knights of the hollow hill."
"Knights?" Clegane made the word a sneer. "Dondarrion's a knight, but the rest of you are the sorriest


lot of outlaws and broken men I've ever seen. I shit better men than you."
"Any knight can make a knight," said the scarecrow that was Beric Dondarrion, "and every man you see
before you has felt a sword upon his shoulder. We are the forgotten fellowship."
"Send me on my way and I'll forget you too," Clegane rasped. "But if you mean to murder me, then
bloody well get on with it. You took my sword, my horse, and my gold, so take my life and be done with
it ... but spare me this pious bleating."
"You will die soon enough, dog," promised Thoros, "but it shan't be murder, only justice."
"Aye," said the Mad Huntsman, "and a kinder fate than you deserve for all your kind have done. Lions,
you call yourselves. At Sherrer and the Mummer's Ford, girls of six and seven years were raped, and
babes still on the breast were cut in two while their mothers watched. No lion ever killed so cruel."
"I was not at Sherrer, nor the Mummer's Ford," the Hound told him. "Lay your dead children at some
other door."
Thoros answered him. "Do you deny that House Clegane was built upon dead children? I saw them lay
Prince Aegon and Princess Rhaenys before the Iron Throne. By rights your arms should bear two bloody
infants in place of those ugly dogs."
The Hound's mouth twitched. "Do you take me for my brother? Is being born Clegane a crime?"
"Murder is a crime."
"Who did I murder?"
"Lord Lothar Mallery and Ser Gladden Wylde," said Harwin.
"My brothers Lister and Lennocks," declared Jack-Be-Lucky.
"Goodman Beck and Mudge the miller's son, from Donnelwood," an old woman called from the
shadows.
"Merriman's widow, who loved so sweet," added Greenbeard.
"Them septons at Sludgy Pond."
"Ser Andrey Charlton. His squire Lucas Roote. Every man, woman, and child in Fieldstone and
Mousedown Mill."
"Lord and Lady Deddings, that was so rich."
Tom Sevenstrings took up the count. "Alyn of Winterfell, Joth Quickbow, Little Matt and his sister
Randa, Anvil Ryn. Ser Ormond. Ser Dudley. Pate of Mory, Pate of Lancewood, Old Pate, and Pate of
Shermer's Grove. Blind Wyl the Whittler. Goodwife Maerie. Maerie the Whore. Becca the Baker. Ser
Raymun Darry, Lord Darry, young Lord Darry. The Bastard of Bracken. Fletcher Will. Harsley.
Goodwife Nolla - "
"Enough." The Hound's face was tight with anger. "You're making noise. These names mean nothing.


Who were they?"
"People," said Lord Beric. "People great and small, young and old. Good people and bad people, who
died on the points of Lannister spears or saw their bellies opened by Lannister swords."
"It wasn't my sword in their bellies. Any man who says it was is a bloody liar."
"You serve the Lannisters of Casterly Rock," said Thoros.
"Once. Me and thousands more. Is each of us guilty of the crimes of the others?" Clegane spat. "Might
be you are knights after all. You lie like knights, maybe you murder like knights."
Lem and Jack-Be-Lucky began to shout at him, but Dondarrion raised a hand for silence. "Say what
you mean, Clegane."
"A knight's a sword with a horse. The rest, the vows and the sacred oils and the lady's favors, they're
silk ribbons tied round the sword. Maybe the sword's prettier with ribbons hanging off it, but it will kill
you just as dead. Well, bugger your ribbons, and shove your swords up your arses. I'm the same as you.
The only difference is, I don't lie about what I am.
So,kill me, but don't call me a murderer while you stand there telling each other that your shit don't stink.
You hear me?"
Arya squirted past Greenbeard so fast he never saw her. "You are a murderer!" she screamed. "You
killed Mycah, don't say you never did. You murdered him!"
The Hound stared at her with no flicker of recognition. "And who was this Mycah, boy?"
"I'm not a boy! But Mycah was. He was a butcher's boy and you killed him. Jory said you cut him near
in half, and he never even had a sword." She could feel them looking at her now, the women and the
children and the men who called themselves the knights of the hollow hill. "Who's this now?" someone
asked.
The Hound answered. "Seven hells. The little sister. The brat who tossed Joff 's pretty sword in the
river." He gave a bark of laughter. "Don't you know you're dead?"
"No, you're dead," she threw back at him.
Harwin took her arm to draw her back as Lord Beric said, "The girl has named you a murderer. Do you
deny killing this butcher's boy, Mycah?"
The big man shrugged. "I was Joffrey's sworn shield. The butcher's boy attacked a prince of the blood."
"That's a lie!" Arya squirmed in Harwin's grip. "It was me. I hit Joffrey and threw Lion's Paw in the river.
Mycah just ran away, like I told him."
"Did you see the boy attack Prince Joffrey?" Lord Beric Dondarrion asked the Hound.
"I heard it from the royal lips. It's not my place to question princes." Clegane jerked his hands toward
Arya. "This one's own sister told the same tale when she stood before your precious Robert."


"Sansa's just a liar," Arya said, furious at her sister all over again. "It wasn't like she said. It wasn't."
Thoros drew Lord Beric aside. The two men stood talking in low whispers while Arya seethed. They
have to kill him. I prayed for him to die, hundreds and hundreds of times.
Beric Dondarrion turned back to the Hound. "You stand accused of murder, but no one here knows the
truth or falsehood of the charge, so it is not for us to judge you. Only the Lord of Light may do that now.
I sentence you to trial by battle."
The Hound frowned suspiciously, as if he did not trust his ears. "Are you a fool or a madman?"
"Neither. I am a just lord. Prove your innocence with a blade, and you shall be free to go."
"No," Arya cried, before Harwin covered her mouth. No, they can't, he'll go free. The Hound was
deadly with a sword, everyone knew that. He'll laugh at them, she thought.
And so he did, a long rasping laugh that echoed off the cave walls, a laugh choking with contempt. "So
who will it be?" He looked at Lem Lemoncloak. "The brave man in the piss-yellow cloak? No? How
about you, Huntsman? You've kicked dogs before, try me." He saw Greenbeard. "You're big enough,
Tyrosh, step forward. Or do you mean to make the little girl fight me herself?" He laughed again. "Come
on, who wants to die?
"It's me you'll face," said Lord Beric Dondarrion.
Arya remembered all the tales. He can't be killed, she thought, hoping against hope. The Mad Huntsman
sliced apart the ropes that bound Sandor Clegane's hands together. "I'll need sword and armor." The
Hound rubbed a torn wrist.
"Your sword you shall have," declared Lord Beric, "but your innocence must be your armor."
Clegane's mouth twitched. "My innocence against your breastplate, is that the way of it?"
"Ned, help me remove my breastplate."
Arya got goosebumps when Lord Beric said her father's name, but this Ned was only a boy, a
fair-haired squire no more than ten or twelve. He stepped up quickly to undo the clasps that fastened the
battered steel about the Marcher lord. The quilting beneath was rotten with age and sweat, and fell away
when the metal was pulled loose. Gendry sucked in his breath. "Mother have mercy."
Lord Beric's ribs were outlined starkly beneath his skin. A puckered crater scarred his breast just above
his left nipple, and when he turned to call for sword and shield, Arya saw a matching scar upon his back.
The lance went through him. The Hound had seen it too. Is he scared? Arya wanted him to be scared
before he died, as scared as Mycah must have been.
Ned fetched Lord Beric his swordbelt and a long black surcoat. It was meant to be worn over armor,
so it draped his body loosely, but across it crackled the forked purple lightning of his House. He
unsheathed his sword and gave the belt back to his squire.
Thoros brought the Hound his swordbelt. "Does a dog have honor?" the priest asked. "Lest you think to
cut your way free of here, or seize some child for a hostage ... Anguy, Dennet, Kyle, feather him at the
first sign of treachery." Only when the three bowmen had notched their shafts did Thoros hand Clegane


the belt.
The Hound ripped the sword free and threw away the scabbard. The Mad Huntsman gave him his
oaken shield, all studded with iron and painted yellow, the three black dogs of Clegane emblazoned upon
it. The boy Ned helped Lord Beric with his own shield, so hacked and battered that the purple lightning
and the scatter of stars upon it had almost been obliterated.
But when the Hound made to step toward his foe, Thoros of Myr stopped him. "First we pray." He
turned toward the fire and lifted his arms. "Lord of Light, look down upon us."
All around the cave, the brotherhood without banners lifted their own voices in response. "Lord of Light,
defend us."
"Lord of Light, protect us in the darkness."
"Lord of Light, shine your face upon us."
"Light your flame among us, R'hllor," said the red priest. "Show us the truth or falseness of this man.
Strike him down if he is guilty, and give strength to his sword if he is true. Lord of Light, give us wisdom."
"For the night is dark," the others chanted, Harwin and Anguy loud as all the rest, "and full of terrors."
"This cave is dark too," said the Hound, "but I'm the terror here. I hope your god's a sweet one,
Dondarrion. You're going to meet him shortly."
Unsmiling, Lord Beric laid the edge of his longsword against the palm of his left hand, and drew it slowly
down. Blood ran dark from the gash he made, and washed over the steel.
And then the sword took fire.
Arya heard Gendry whisper a prayer.
"Burn in seven hells," the Hound cursed. "You, and Thoros too." He threw a glance at the red priest.
"When I'm done with him you'll be next, Myr."
"Every word you say proclaims your guilt, dog," answered Thoros, while Lem and Greenbeard and
Jack-Be-Lucky shouted threats and curses. Lord Beric himself waited silent, calm as still water, his shield
on his left arm and his sword burning in his right hand. Kill him, Arya thought, please, you have to kill him.
Lit from below, his face was a death mask, his missing eye a red and angry wound. The sword was
aflame from point to crossguard, but Dondarrion seemed not to feel the heat. He stood so still he might
have been carved of stone.
But when the Hound charged him, he moved fast enough.
The flaming sword leapt up to meet the cold one, long streamers of fire trailing in its wake like the
ribbons the Hound had spoken of. Steel rang on steel. No sooner was his first slash blocked than
Clegane made another, but this time Lord Beric's shield got in the way, and wood chips flew from the
force of the blow. Hard and fast the cuts came, from low and high, from right and left? and each one
Dondarrion blocked. The flames swirled about his sword and left red and yellow ghosts to mark its
passage. Each move Lord Beric made fanned them and made them bum the brighter, until it seemed as
though the lightning lord stood within a cage of fire. "Is it wildfire?" Arya asked Gendry.


"No. This is different. This is..."
"... magic?" she finished as the Hound edged back. Now it was Lord
Beric attacking, filling the air with ropes of fire, driving the bigger man back on his heels. Clegane caught
one blow high on his shield, and a painted dog lost a head. He countercut, and Dondarrion interposed his
own shield and launched a fiery backslash. The outlaw brotherhood shouted on their leader. "He's
yours!" Arya heard, and "At him! At him! At him!" The Hound parried a cut at his head, grimacing as the
heat of the flames beat against his face. He grunted and cursed and reeled away.
Lord Beric gave him no respite. Hard on the big man's heels he followed, his arm never still. The swords
clashed and sprang apart and clashed again, splinters flew from the lightning shield while swirling flames
kissed the dogs once, and twice, and thrice. The Hound moved to his right, but Dondarrion blocked him
with a quick sidestep and drove him back the other way ... toward the sullen red blaze of the firepit.
Clegane gave ground until he felt the heat at his back. A quick glance over his shoulder showed him what
was behind him, and almost cost him his head when Lord Beric attacked anew.
Arya could see the whites of Sandor Clegane's eyes as he bulled his way forward again. Three steps up
and two back, a move to the left that Lord Beric blocked, two more forward and one back, clang and
clang, and the big oaken shields took blow after blow after blow. The Hound's lank dark hair was
plastered to his brow in a sheen of sweat. Wine sweat, Arya thought, remembering that he'd been taken
drunk. She thought she could see the beginnings of fear wake in his eyes. He's going to lose, she told
herself, exulting, as Lord Beric's flaming sword whirled and slashed. in one wild flurry, the lightning lord
took back all the ground the Hound had gained, sending Clegane staggering to the very edge of the firepit
once more. He is, he is, he's going to die. She stood on her toes for a better look.
"Bloody bastard!" the Hound screamed as he felt the fire licking against the back of his thighs. He
charged, swinging the heavy sword harder and harder, trying to smash the smaller man down with brute
force, to break blade or shield or arm. But the flames of Dondarrion's parries snapped at his eyes, and
when the Hound jerked away from them, his foot went out from under him and he staggered to one knee.
At once Lord Beric closed, his downcut screaming through the air trailing permons of fire. Panting from
exertion, Clegane jerked his shield up over his head just in time, and the cave rang with the loud crack of
splintering oak.
"His shield is afire," Gendry said in a hushed voice. Arya saw it in the same instant. The flames had
spread across the chipped yellow paint, and the three black dogs were engulfed.
Sandor Clegane had fought his way back to his feet with a reckless counterattack. Not until Lord Beric
retreated a pace did the Hound seem to realize that the fire that roared so near his face was his own
shield,
burning. With a shout of revulsion, he hacked down savagely on the broken oak, completing its
destruction. The shield shattered, one piece of it spinning away, still afire, while the other clung stubbornly
to his forearm. His efforts to free himself only fanned the flames. His sleeve caught, and now his whole
left arm was ablaze. "Finish him!" Greenbeard urged Lord Beric, and other voices took up the chant of
"Guilty!" Arya shouted with the rest. "Guilty, guilty, kill him, guilty!"
Smooth as summer silk, Lord Beric slid close to make an end of the man before him. The Hound gave a
rasping scream, raised his sword in both hands and brought it crashing down with all his strength. Lord
Beric blocked the cut easily ...


"Noooooo," Arya shrieked.
... but the burning sword snapped in two, and the Hound's cold steel plowed into Lord Beric's flesh
where his shoulder joined his neck and clove him clean down to the breastbone. The blood came rushing
out in a hot black gush.
Sandor Clegane jerked backward, still burning. He ripped the remnants of his shield off and flung them
away with a curse, then rolled in the dirt to smother the fire running along his arm.
Lord Beric's knees folded slowly, as if for prayer. When his mouth opened only blood came out. The
Hound's sword was still in him as he toppled face forward. The dirt drank his blood. Beneath the hollow
hill there was no sound but the soft crackling of flames and the whimper the Hound made when he tried
to rise. Arya could only think of Mycah and all the stupid prayers she'd prayed for the Hound to die. If
there were gods, why didn't Lord Beric win? She knew the Hound was guilty.
"Please," Sandor Clegane rasped, cradling his arm. "I'm burned. Help me. Someone. Help me." He was
crying. "Please."
Arya looked at him in astonishment. He's crying like a little baby, she thought.
"Melly, see to his bums," said Thoros. "Lem, Jack, help me with Lord Beric. Ned, you'd best come
too." The red priest wrenched the Hound's sword from the body of his fallen lord and thrust the point of
it down in the blood-soaked earth. Lem slid his big hands under Dondarrion's arms, while
Jack-Be-Lucky took his feet. They carried him around the firepit, into the darkness of one of the tunnels.
Thoros and the boy Ned followed after.
The Mad Huntsman spat. "I say we take him back to Stoney Sept and put him in a crow cage."
"Yes," Arya said. "He murdered Mycah. He did."
"Such an angry squirrel," murmured Greenbeard.
Harwin sighed. "R'hllor has judged him innocent."
"Who's Rulore?" She couldn't even say it.
"The Lord of Light. Thoros has taught us - "
She didn't care what Thoros had taught them. She yanked Greenbeard's dagger from its sheath and spun
away before he could catch her. Gendry made a grab for her as well, but she had always been too fast
for Gendry.
Tom Sevenstrings and some woman were helping the Hound to his feet. The sight of his arm shocked
her speechless. There was a strip of pink where the leather strap had clung, but above and below the
flesh was cracked and red and bleeding from elbow to wrist. When his eyes met hers, his mouth
twitched. "You want me dead that bad? Then do it, wolf girl. Shove it in. It's cleaner than fire." Clegane
tried to stand, but as he moved a piece of burned flesh sloughed right off his arm, and his knees went out
from under him. Tom caught him by his good arm and held him up.
His arm, Arya thought, and his face. But he was the Hound. He deserved to bum in a fiery hell. The


knife felt heavy in her hand. She gripped it tighter. "You killed Mycah," she said once more, daring him to
deny it. "Tell them. You did. You did."
"I did." His whole face twisted. "I rode him down and cut him in half, and laughed. I watched them beat
your sister bloody too, watched them cut your father's head off."
Lem grabbed her wrist and twisted, wrenching the dagger away. She kicked at him, but he would not
give it back. "You go to hell, Hound," she screamed at Sandor Clegane in helpless empty-handed rage.
"You just go to hell!"
"He has," said a voice scarce stronger than a whisper.
When Arya turned, Lord Beric Dondarrion was standing behind her, his bloody hand clutching Thoros
by the shoulder.
Chapter 35
CATELYN
Let the kings of winter have their cold crypt under the earth, Catelyn thought. The Tullys drew their
strength from the river, and it was to the river they returned when their lives had run their course.
They laid Lord Hoster in a slender wooden boat, clad in shining silver armor, plate-and-mail. His cloak
was spread beneath him, rippling blue and red. His surcoat was divided blue-and-red as well. A trout,
scaled in silver and bronze, crowned the crest of the greathelm they placed beside his head. On his chest
they placed a painted wooden sword, his fingers curled about its hilt. Mail gauntlets hid his wasted hands,
and made him look almost strong again. His massive oak-and-iron shield was set by his left side, his
hunting horn to his right. The rest of the boat was filled with driftwood and kindling and scraps of
parchment, and stones to make it heavy in the water. His banner flew from the prow, the leaping trout of
Riverrun.
Seven were chosen to push the funereal boat to the water, in honor of the seven faces of god. Robb was
one, Lord Hoster's liege lord. With him were the Lords Bracken, Blackwood, Vance, and Mallister, Ser
Marq Piper ... and Lame Lothar Frey, who had come down from the Twins with the answer they had
awaited. Forty soldiers rode in his escort, commanded by Walder Rivers, the eldest of Lord Walder's
bastard brood, a stem, grey-haired man with a formidable reputation as a warrior. Their arrival, coming
within hours of Lord Hoster's passing, had sent Edmure into a rage. "Walder Frey should be flayed and
quartered!" he'd shouted. "He sends a cripple and a bastard to treat with us, tell me there is no insult
meant by that."
"I have no doubt that Lord Walder chose his envoys with care," she replied. "It was a peevish thing to
do, a petty sort of revenge, but remember who we are dealing with. The Late Lord Frey, Father used to
call him. The man is ill-tempered, envious, and above all prideful."
Blessedly, her son had shown better sense than her brother. Robb had greeted the Freys with every
courtesy, found barracks space for the escort, and quietly asked Ser Desmond Grell to stand aside so
Lothar might have the honor of helping to send Lord Hoster on his last voyage. He has learned a rough


wisdom beyond his years, my son. House Frey might have abandoned the King in the North, but the
Lord of the Crossing remained the most powerful of Riverrun's bannermen, and Lothar was here in his
stead.
The seven launched Lord Hoster from the water stair, wading down the steps as the portcullis was
winched upward. Lothar Frey, a soft-bodied portly man, was breathing heavily as they shoved the boat
out into the current. Jason Mallister and Tytos Blackwood, at the prow, stood chest deep in the river to
guide it on its way.
Catelyn watched from the battlements, waiting and watching as she had waited and watched so many
times before. Beneath her, the swift wild Tumblestone plunged like a spear into the side of the broad Red
Fork, its blue-white current churning the muddy red-brown flow of the greater river. A morning mist hung
over the water, as thin as gossamer and the wisps of memory.
Bran and Rickon will be waiting for him, Catelyn thought sadly, as once I used to wait.
The slim boat drifted out from under the red stone arch of the Water Gate, picking up speed as it was
caught in the headlong rush of the Tumblestone and pushed out into the tumult where the waters met. As
the boat emerged from beneath the high sheltering walls of the castle, its square sail filled with wind, and
Catelyn saw sunlight flashing on her father's helm. Lord Hoster Tully's rudder held true, and he sailed
serenely down the center of the channel, into the rising sun.
"Now," her uncle urged. Beside him, her brother Edmure - Lord Edmure now in truth, and how long
would that take to grow used to? nocked an arrow to his bowstring. His squire held a brand to its point.
Edmure waited until the flame caught, then lifted the great bow, drew the string to his ear, and let fly.
With a deep thrum, the arrow sped upward. Catelyn followed its flight with her eyes and heart, until it
plunged into the water with a soft hiss, well astern of Lord Hoster's boat.
Edmure cursed softly. "The wind," he said, pulling a second arrow. "Again." The brand kissed the
oil-soaked rag behind the arrowhead, the flames went licking up, Edmure lifted, pulled, and released.
High and far the arrow flew. Too far. It vanished in the river a dozen yards beyond the
boat, its fire winking out in an instant. A flush was creeping up Edmure's neck, red as his beard. "Once
more," he commanded, taking a third arrow from the quiver. He is as tight as his bowstring, Catelyn
thought.
Ser Brynden must have seen the same thing. "Let me, my lord," he offered.
"I can do it," Edmure insisted. He let them light the arrow, jerked the bow up, took a deep breath, drew
back the arrow. For a long moment he seemed to hesitate while the fire crept up the shaft, crackling.
Finally he released. The arrow flashed up and up, and finally curved down again, falling, falling ... and
hissing past the billowing sail.
A narrow miss, no more than a handspan, and yet a miss. "The Others take it!" her brother swore. The
boat was almost out of range, drifting in and out among the river mists. Wordless, Edmure thrust the bow
at his uncle.
"Swiftly," Ser Brynden said, He nocked an arrow, held it steady for the brand, drew and released before
Catelyn was quite sure that the fire had caught ... but as the shot rose, she saw the flames trailing through
the air, a pale orange pennon. The boat had vanished in the mists. Falling, the flaming arrow was
swallowed up as well ... but only for a heartbeat. Then, sudden as hope, they saw the red bloom flower.


The sails took fire, and the fog glowed pink and orange. For a moment Catelyn saw the outline of the
boat clearly, wreathed in leaping flames.
Watch for me, little cat, she could hear him whisper.
Catelyn reached out blindly, groping for her brother's hand, but Edmure had moved away, to stand
alone on the highest point of the battlements. Her uncle Brynden took her hand instead, twining his strong
fingers through hers. Together they watched the little fire grow smaller as the burning boat receded in the
distance.
And then it was gone ... drifting downriver still, perhaps, or broken up and sinking. The weight of his
armor would carry Lord Hoster down to rest in the soft mud of the riverbed, in the watery halls where
the Tullys held eternal court, with schools of fish their last attendants.
No sooner had the burning boat vanished from their sight than Edmure walked off. Catelyn would have
liked to embrace him, if only for a moment; to sit for an hour or a night or the turn of a moon to speak of
the dead and mourn. Yet she knew as well as he that this was not the time; he was Lord of Riverrun
now, and his knights were falling in around him, munnuring condolences and promises of fealty, walling
him off from something as small as a sister's grief. Edmure listened, hearing none of the words.
"It is no disgrace to miss your shot," her uncle told her quietly. "Edmure should hear that. The day my
own lord father went downriver, Hoster missed as well."
"With his first shaft." Catelyn had been too young to remember, but Lord Hoster had often told the tale.
"His second found the sail." She sighed. Edmure was not as strong as he seemed. Their father's death had
been a mercy when it came at last, but even so her brother had taken it hard.
Last night in his cups he had broken down and wept, full of regrets for things undone and words unsaid.
He ought never to have ridden off to fight his battle on the fords, he told her tearfully; he should have
stayed at their father's bedside. "I should have been with him, as you were," he said. "Did he speak of me
at the end? Tell me true, Cat. Did he ask for me?"
Lord Hoster's last word had been "Tansy," but Catelyn could not bring herself to tell him that. "He
whispered your name," she lied, and her brother had nodded gratefully and kissed her hand. If he had not
tried to drown his grief and guilt, he might have been able to bend a bow, she thought to herself, sighing,
but that was something else she dare not say.
The Blackfish escorted her down from the battlements to where Robb stood among his bannermen, his
young queen at his side. When he saw her, her son took her silently in his arms.
"Lord Hoster looked as noble as a king, my lady," murmured Jeyne. "Would that I had been given the
chance to know him."
"And I to know him better," added Robb.
"He would have wished that too," said Catelyn. "There were too many leagues between Riverrun and
Winterfell." And too many mountains and rivers and armies between Riverrun and the Eyrie, it would
seem. Lysa had made no reply to her letter.
And from King's Landing came only silence as well. By now she had hoped that Brienne and Ser Cleos
would have reached the city with their captive. It might even be that Brienne was on her way back, and


the girls with her. Ser Gleos swore he would make the Imp send a raven once the trade was made. He
swore it! Ravens did not always win through. Some bowman could have brought the bird down and
roasted him for supper. The letter that would have set her heart at ease might even now be lying by the
ashes of some campfire beside a pile of raven bones.
Others were waiting to offer Robb their consolations, so Catelyn stood aside patiently while Lord Jason
Mallister, the Greatjon, and Ser Rolph Spicer spoke to him each in turn. But when Lothar Frey
approached, she gave his sleeve a tug. Robb turned, and waited to hear what Lothar would say.
"Your Grace." A plump man in his middle thirties, Lothar Frey had close-set eyes, a pointed beard, and
dark hair that fell to his shoulders in
ringlets. A leg twisted at birth had earned him the name Lame Lothar. He had served as his father's
steward for the past dozen years. "We are loath to intrude upon your grief, but perhaps you might grant
us audience tonight? "
"It would be my pleasure," said Robb. "It was never my wish to sow enmity between us."
"Nor mine to be the cause of it," said Queen Jeyne.
Lothar Frey smiled. "I understand, as does my lord father. He instructed me to say that he was young
once, and well remembers what it is like to lose one's heart to beauty."
Catelyn doubted very much that Lord Walder had said any such thing, or that he had ever lost his heart
to beauty. The Lord of the Crossing had outlived seven wives and was now wed to his eighth, but he
spoke of them only as bedwarmers and brood mares. Still, the words were fairly spoken, and she could
scarce object to the compliment. Nor did Robb. "Your father is most gracious," he said. "I shall look
forward to our talk."
Lothar bowed, kissed the queen's hand, and withdrew. By then a dozen others had gathered for a word.
Robb spoke with them each, giving a thanks here, a smile there, as needed. Only when the last of them
was done did he turn back to Catelyn. "There is something we must speak of. Will you walk with me?"
"As you command, Your Grace."
"That wasn't a command, Mother."
"It will be my pleasure, then." Her son had treated her kindly enough since returning to Riverrun, yet he
seldom sought her out. If he was more comfortable with his young queen, she could scarcely blame him.
leyne makes him smile, and I have nothing to share with him but grief. He seemed to enjoy the company
of his bride's brothers, as well; young Rollam his squire and Ser Raynald his standard-bearer. They are
standing in the boots of those he's lost, Catelyn realized when she watched them together. Rollam has
taken Bran's place, and Raynald is part Theon and part Ion Snow Only with the Westerlings did she see
Robb smile, or hear him laugh like the boy he was. To the others he was always the King in the North,
head bowed beneath the weight of the crown even when his brows were bare.
Robb kissed his wife gently, promised to see her in their chambers, and went off with his lady mother.
His steps led them toward the godswood. "Lothar seemed amiable, that's a hopeful sign. We need the
Freys."
"That does not mean we shall have them."


He nodded, and there was glumness to his face and a slope to his shoulders that made her heart go out
to him. The crown is crushing him, she thought. He wants so much to be a good king, to be brave and
honorable and clever, but the weight is too much for a boy to bear. Robb
was doing all he could, yet still the blows kept falling, one after the other, relentless. When they brought
him word of the battle at Duskendale, where Lord Randyll Tarly had shattered Robett Glover and Ser
Helman Tallhart, he might have been expected to rage. Instead he'd stared in dumb disbelief and said,
"Duskendale, on the narrow sea? Why would they go to Duskendale?" He'd shook his head, bewildered.
"A third of my foot, lost for Duskendale?"
"The ironmen have my castle and now the Lannisters hold my brother," Galbart Glover said, in a voice
thick with despair. Robett Glover had survived the battle, but had been captured near the kingsroad not
long after.
"Not for long," her son promised. "I will offer them Martyn Lannister in exchange. Lord Tywin will have
to accept, for his brother's sake." Martyn was Ser Kevan's son, a twin to the Willem that Lord Karstark
had butchered. Those murders still haunted her son, Catelyn knew. He had tripled the guard around
Martyn, but still feared for his safety.
"I should have traded the Kingslayer for Sansa when you first urged it," Robb said as they walked the
gallery. "If I'd offered to wed her to the Knight of Flowers, the Tyrells might be ours instead of Joffrey's.
I should have thought of that."
"Your mind was on your battles, and rightly so. Even a king cannot think of everything."
"Battles," muttered Robb as he led her out beneath the trees. "I have won every battle, yet somehow I'm
losing the war." He looked up, as if the answer might be written on the sky. "The ironmen hold Winterfell,
and Moat Cailin too. Father's dead, and Bran and Rickon, maybe Arya. And now your father too."
She could not let him despair. She knew the taste of that draught too well herself. "My father has been
dying for a long time. You could not have changed that. You have made mistakes, Robb, but what king
has not? Ned would have been proud of you."
"Mother, there is something you must know."
Catelyn's heart skipped a beat. This is something he hates. Something he dreads to tell me. All she could
think of was Brienne and her mission. "Is it the Kingslayer?"
"No. It's Sansa."
She's dead, Catelyn thought at once. Brienne failed, Jaime is dead, and Cersei has killed my sweet girl in
retribution. For a moment she could barely speak. "Is ... is she gone, Robb?"
"Gone?" He looked startled. "Dead? Oh, Mother, no, not that, they haven't harmed her, not that way,
only ... a bird came last night, but I couldn't bring myself to tell you, not until your father was sent to his
rest." Robb took her hand. "They married her to Tyrion Lannister."
Catelyn's fingers clutched at his. "The Imp."
"Yes."


"He swore to trade her for his brother," she said numbly. "Sansa and Arya both. We would have them
back if we returned his precious Jaime, he swore it before the whole court. How could he marry her,
after saying that in sight of gods and men?"
"He's the Kingslayer's brother. Oathbreaking runs in their blood." Robb's fingers brushed the pommel of
his sword. "If I could Id take his ugly head off. Sansa would be a widow then, and free. There's no other
way that I can see. They made her speak the vows before a septon and don a crimson cloak."
Catelyn remembered the twisted little man she had seized at the crossroads inn and carried all the way to
the Eyrie. "I should have let Lysa push him out her Moon Door. My poor sweet Sansa ... why would
anyone do this to her?"
"For Winterfell," Robb said at once. "With Bran and Rickon dead, Sansa is my heir. If anything should
happen to me . . . "
She clutched tight at his hand. "Nothing will happen to you. Nothing. I could not stand it. They took
Ned, and your sweet brothers. Sansa is married, Arya is lost, my father's dead ... if anything befell you, I
would go mad, Robb. You are all I have left. You are all the north has left."
"I am not dead yet, Mother."
Suddenly Catelyn was full of dread. "Wars need not be fought until the last drop of blood." Even she
could hear the desperation in her voice. "You would not be the first king to bend the knee, nor even the
first Stark."
His mouth tightened. "No. Never."
"There is no shame in it. Balon Greyjoy bent the knee to Robert when his rebellion failed. Torrhen Stark
bent the knee to Aegon the Conqueror rather than see his army face the fires."
"Did Aegon kill King Torrhen's father?" He pulled his hand from hers. "Never, I said."
He is playing the boy now, not the king. "The Lannisters do not need the north. They will require homage
and hostages, no more ... and the Imp will keep Sansa no matter what we do, so they have their hostage.
The ironmen will prove a more implacable enemy, I promise you. To have any hope of holding the north,
the Greyjoys must leave no single sprig of House Stark alive to dispute their right. Theon's murdered
Bran and Rickon, so now all they need do is kill you ... and Jeyne, yes. Do you think Lord Balon can
afford to let her live to bear you heirs?"
Robb's face was cold. "Is that why you freed the Kingslayer? To make a peace with the Lannisters?"
"I freed Jaime for Sansa's sake ... and Arya's, if she still lives. You
know that. But if I nurtured some hope of buying peace as well, was that so ill?"
"Yes," he said. "The Lannisters killed my father."
"Do you think I have forgotten that?"
"I don't know. Have you?"


Catelyn had never struck her children in anger, but she almost struck Robb then. It was an effort to
remind herself how frightened and alone he must feel. "You are King in the North, the choice is yours. I
only ask that you think on what I've said. The singers make much of kings who die valiantly in battle, but
your life is worth more than a song. To me at least, who gave it to you." She lowered her head. "Do I
have your leave to go?"
"Yes." He turned away and drew his sword. What he meant to do with it, she could not say. There was
no enemy there, no one to fight. Only her and him, amongst tall trees and fallen leaves. There are fights no
sword can win, Catelyn wanted to tell him, but she feared the king was deaf to such words.
Hours later, she was sewing in her bedchamber when young Rollarn Westerling came running with the
summons to supper. Good, Catelyn thought, relieved. She had not been certain that her son would want
her there, after their quarrel. "A dutiful squire," she said to Rollam gravely. Bran would have been the
same.
If Robb seemed cool at table and Edmure surly, Lame Lothar made up for them both. He was the
model of courtesy, reminiscing warmly about Lord Hoster, offering Catelyn gentle condolences on the
loss of Bran and Rickon, praising Edmure for the victory at Stone Mill, and thanking Robb for the "swift
sure justice" he had meted out to Rickard Karstark. Lothar's bastard brother Walder Rivers was another
matter; a harsh sour man with old Lord Walder's suspicious face, he spoke but seldom and devoted most
of his attention to the meat and mead that was set before him.
When all the empty words were said, the queen and the other Westerlings excused themselves, the
remains of the meal were cleared away, and Lothar Frey cleared his throat. "Before we turn to the
business that brings us here, there is another matter," he said solemnly. "A grave matter, I fear. I had
hoped it would not fall to me to bring you these tidings, but it seems I must. My lord father has had a
letter from his grandsons."
Catelyn had been so lost in grief for her own that she had almost forgotten the two Freys she had agreed
to foster. No more, she thought. Mother have mercy, how many more blows can we bear? Somehow
she knew the next words she heard would plunge yet another blade into her heart. "The grandsons at
Winterfell? " she made herself ask. "My wards?"
"Walder and WaIder, yes. But they are presently at the Dreadfort, my
lady. I grieve to tell you this, but there has been a battle. Winterfell is burned."
"Burned?" Robb's voice was incredulous.
"Your northern lords tried to retake it from the ironmen. When Theon Greyjoy saw that his prize was
lost, he put the castle to the torch."
"We have heard naught of any battle," said Ser Brynden.
"My nephews are young, I grant you, but they were there. Big Walder wrote the letter, though his cousin
signed as well. It was a bloody bit of business, by their account. Your castellan was slain. Ser Rodrik,
was that his name?"
"Ser Rodrik Cassel," said Catelyn numbly. That dear brave loyal old soul. She could almost see him,
tugging on his fierce white whiskers. "What of our other people?"


"The ironmen put many of them to the sword, I fear."
Wordless with rage, Robb slammed a fist down on the table and turned his face away, so the Freys
would not see his tears.
But his mother saw them. The world grows a little darker every day. Catelyn's thoughts went to Ser
Rodrik's little daughter Beth, to tireless Maester Luwin and cheerful Septon Chayle, Mikken at the forge,
Farlen and Palla in the kennels, Old Nan and simple Hodor. Her heart was sick. "Please, not all."
"No," said Lame Lothar. "The women and children hid, my nephews Walder and Walder among them.
With Winterfell in ruins, the survivors were carried back to the Dreadfort by this son of Lord Bolton's.-
"Bolton's son?" Robb's voice was strained.
Walder Rivers spoke up. "A bastard son, I believe."
"Not Ramsay Snow? Does Lord Roose have another bastard?" Robb scowled. "This Ramsay was a
monster and a murderer, and he died a coward. Or so I was told."
"I cannot speak to that. There is much confusion in any war. Many false reports. All I can tell you is that
my nephews claim it was this bastard son of Bolton's who saved the women of Winterfell, and the little
ones. They are safe at the Dreadfort now, all those who remain."
"Theon," Robb said suddenly. "What happened to Theon Greyjoy? Was he slain?"
Lame Lothar spread his hands. "That I cannot say, Your Grace. Walder and Walder made no mention
of his fate. Perhaps Lord Bolton might know, if he has had word from this son of his."
Ser Brynden said, "We will be certain to ask him."
"You are all distraught, I see. I am sorry to have brought you such fresh grief. Perhaps we should
adjourn until the morrow. Our business can wait until you have composed yourselves..."
"No," said Robb, "I want the matter settled."
Her brother Edmure nodded. "Me as well. Do you have an answer to our offer, my lord?"
"I do." Lothar smiled. "My lord father bids me tell Your Grace that he will agree to this new marriage
alliance between our houses and renew his fealty to the King in the North, upon the condition that the
King's Grace apologize for the insult done to House Frey, in his royal person, face to face."
An apology was a small enough price to pay, but Catelyn misliked this petty condition of Lord Walder's
at once.
"I am pleased," Robb said cautiously. "It was never my wish to cause this rift between us, Lothar. The
Freys have fought valiantly for my cause. I would have them at my side once more."
"You are too kind, Your Grace. As you accept these terms, I am then instructed to offer Lord Tully the
hand of my sister, the Lady Roslin, a maid of sixteen years. Roslin is my lord father's youngest daughter
by Lady Bethany of House Rosby, his sixth wife. She has a gentle nature and a gift for music."


Edmure shifted in his seat. "Might not it be better if I first met -
"You'll meet when you're wed," said Walder Rivers curtly. "Unless Lord Tully feels a need to count her
teeth first?"
Edmure kept his temper. "I will take your word so far as her teeth are concerned, but it would be
pleasant if I might gaze upon her face before I espoused her."
"You must accept her now, my lord," said Walder Rivers. "Else my father's offer is withdrawn."
Lame Lothar spread his hands. "My brother has a soldier's bluntness, but what he says is true. It is my
lord father's wish that this marriage take place at once."
"At once?" Edmure sounded so unhappy that Catelyn had the unworthy thought that perhaps he had
been entertaining notions of breaking the betrothal after the fighting was done.
"Has Lord Walder forgotten that we are fighting a war?" Brynden Blackfish asked sharply.
"Scarcely," said Lothar. "That is why he insists that the marriage take place now, ser. Men die in war,
even men who are young and strong. What would become of our alliance should Lord Edmure fall before
he took Roslin to bride? And there is my father's age to consider as well. He is past ninety and not like to
see the end of this struggle. It would put his noble heart at peace if he could see his dear Roslin safely
wed before the gods take him, so he might die with the knowledge that the girl had a strong husband to
cherish and protect her."
We all want Lord Walder to die happy. Catelyn was growing less and
less comfortable with this arrangement. "My brother has just lost his own father. He needs time to
mourn."
"Roslin is a cheerful girl," said Lothar. "She may be the very thing Lord Edmure needs to help him
through his grief."
"And my grandfather has come to mislike lengthy betrothals," the bastard Walder Rivers added. "I
cannot imagine why."
Robb gave him a chilly look. "I take your meaning, Rivers. Pray excuse us."
"As Your Grace commands." Lame Lothar rose, and his bastard brother helped him hobble from the
room.
Edmure was seething. "They're as much as saying that my promise is worthless. Why should I let that old
weasel choose my bride? Lord Walder has other daughters besides this Roslin. Granddaughters as well.
I should be offered the same choice you were. I'm his liege lord, he should be overjoyed that I'm willing
to wed any of them."
"He is a proud man, and we've wounded him," said Catelyn.
"The Others take his pride! I will not be shamed in my own hall. My answer is no."


Robb gave him a weary look. "I will not command you. Not in this. But if you refuse, Lord Frey will
take it for another slight, and any hope of putting this arights will be gone."
"You cannot know that," Edmure insisted. "Frey has wanted me for one of his daughters since the day I
was bom. He will not let a chance like this slip between those grasping fingers of his. When Lothar brings
him our answer, he'll come wheedling back and accept a betrothal ... and to a daughter of my choosing."
"Perhaps, in time," said Brynden Blackfish. "But can we wait, while Lothar rides back and forth with
offers and counters?"
Robb's hands curled into fists. "I must get back to the north. My brothers dead, Winterfell burned, my
smallfolk put to the sword ... the gods only know what this bastard of Bolton's is about, or whether
Theon is still alive and on the loose. I can't sit here waiting for a wedding that might or might not happen."
"It must happen," said Catelyn, though not gladly. "I have no more wish to suffer Walder Frey's insults
and complaints than you do, Brother, but I see little choice here. Without this wedding, Robb's cause is
lost. Edmure, we must accept."
"We must accept?" he echoed peevishly. "I don't see you offering to become the ninth Lady Frey, Cat."
"The eighth Lady Frey is still alive and well, so far as I know," she replied. Thankfully. Otherwise it might
well have come to that, knowing Lord Walder.
The Blackfish said, "I am the last man in the Seven Kingdoms to tell
anyone who they must wed, Nephew. Nonetheless, you did say something of making amends for your
Battle of the Fords."
"I had in mind a different sort of amends. Single combat with the Kingslayer. Seven years of penace as a
begging brother. Swimming the sunset sea with my legs tied." When he saw that no one was smiling,
Edmure threw up his hands. "The Others take you all! Very well, I'll wed the wench. As amends."
Chapter 36
DAVOS
Lord Alester looked up sharply. "Voices," he said. "Do you hear, Davos? Someone is coming for us."
"Lamprey," said Davos. "It's time for our supper, or near enough." Last night Lamprey had brought them
half a beef-and-bacon pie, and a flagon of mead as well. just the thought of it made his belly start to
rumble.
"No, there's more than one."
He's right. Davos heard two voices at least, and footsteps, growing louder. He got to his feet and moved
to the bars.


Lord Alester brushed the straw from his clothes. "The king has sent for me. Or the queen, yes, Selyse
would never let me rot here, her own blood."
Outside the cell, Lamprey appeared with a ring of keys in hand. Ser Axell Florent and four guardsmen
followed close behind him. They waited beneath the torch while Lamprey searched for the correct key.
"Axell," Lord Alester said. "Gods be good. Is it the king who sends for me, or the queen?"
"No one has sent for you, traitor," Ser Axell said.
Lord Alester recoiled as if he'd been slapped. "No, I swear to you, I committed no treason. Why won't
you listen? If His Grace would only let me explain - "
Lamprey thrust a great iron key into the lock, turned it, and pulled open the cell. The rusted hinges
screamed in protest. "You," he said to Davos. "Come."
"Where?" Davos looked to Ser Axell. "Tell me true, ser, do you mean to bum me?"
"You are sent for. Can you walk?"
"I can walk." Davos stepped from the cell. Lord Alester gave a cry of dismay as Lamprey slammed the
door shut once more.
"Take the torch," Ser Axell commanded the gaoler. "Leave the traitor to the darkness."
"No," his brother said. "Axell, please, don't take the light gods have mercy . . . "
"Gods? There is only R'hllor, and the Other." Ser Axell gestured sharply, and one of his guardsmen
pulled the torch from its sconce and led the way to the stair.
"Are you taking me to Melisandre?" Davos asked.
"She will be there," Ser Axell said. "She is never far from the king. But it is His Grace himself who asked
for you."
Davos lifted his hand to his chest, where once his luck had hung in a leather bag on a thong. Gone now,
he remembered, and the ends of four fingers as well. But his hands were still long enough to wrap about a
woman's throat, he thought, especially a slender throat like hers.
Up they went, climbing the turnpike stair in single file. The walls were rough dark stone, cool to the
touch. The light of the torches went before them, and their shadows marched beside them on the walls.
At the third turn they passed an iron gate that opened on blackness, and another at the fifth turn. Davos
guessed that they were near the surface by then, perhaps even above it. The next door they came to was
made of wood, but still they climbed. Now the walls were broken by arrow slits, but no shafts of sunlight
pried their way through the thickness of the stone. It was night outside.
His legs were aching by the time Ser Axell thrust open a heavy door and gestured him through. Beyond,
a high stone bridge arched over emptiness to the massive central tower called the Stone Drum. A sea
wind blew restlessly through the arches that supported the roof, and Davos could smell the salt water as
they crossed. He took a deep breath, filling his lungs with the clean cold air. Wind and water, give me
strength, he prayed. A huge nightfire burned in the yard below, to keep the terrors of the dark at bay,


and the queen's men were gathered around it, singing praises to their new red god.
They were in the center of the bridge when Ser Axell stopped suddenly. He made a brusque gesture
with his hand, and his men moved out of earshot. "Were it my choice, I would bum you with my brother
Alester,
he told Davos. "You are both traitors."
"Say what you will. I would never betray King Stannis."
"You would. You will. I see it in your face. And I have seen it in the flames as well. R'hllor has blessed
me with that gift. Like Lady Melisandre, he shows me the future in the fire. Stannis Baratheon will sit the
Iron Throne. I have seen it. And I know what must be done. His Grace must make me his Hand, in
place of my traitor brother. And you will tell him so."
Will I? Davos said nothing.
"The queen has urged my appointment," Ser Axell went on. "Even your old friend from Lys, the pirate
Saan, he says the same. We have made a plan together, him and me. Yet His Grace does not act. The
defeat gnaws inside him, a black worm in his soul. it is up to us who love him to show him what to do. If
you are as devoted to his cause as you claim, smuggler, you will join your voice to ours. Tell him that I
am the only Hand he needs. Tell him, and when we sail I shall see that you have a new ship."
A ship. Davos studied the other man's face. Ser Axell had big Florent ears, much like the queen's.
Coarse hair grew from them, as from his nostrils; more sprouted in tufts and patches beneath his double
chin. His nose was broad, his brow beetled, his eyes close-set and hostile. He would sooner give me a
pyre than a ship, he said as much, but if I do him this favor ...
"if you think to betray me," Ser Axell said, "pray remember that I have been castellan of Dragonstone a
good long time. The garrison is mine. Perhaps I cannot burn you without the king's consent, but who is to
say you might not suffer a fall." He laid a meaty hand on the back of Davos's neck and shoved him bodily
against the waist-high side of the bridge, then shoved a little harder to force his face out over the yard.
"Do you hear me?"
"I hear," said Davos. And you dare name me traitor?
Ser Axell released him. "Good." He smiled. "His Grace awaits. Best we do not keep him."
At the very top of Stone Drum, within the great round room called the Chamber of the Painted Table,
they found Stannis Baratheon standing behind the artifact that gave the hall its name, a massive slab of
wood carved and painted in the shape of Westeros as it had been in the time of Aegon the Conqueror.
An iron brazier stood beside the king, its coals glowing a ruddy orange. Four tall pointed windows
looked out to north, south, east, and west. Beyond was the night and the starry sky. Davos could hear
the wind moving, and fainter, the sounds of the sea.
"Your Grace," Ser Axell said, "as it please you, I have brought the onion knight."
"So I see." Stannis wore a grey wool tunic, a dark red mantle, and a plain black leather belt from which
his sword and dagger hung. A red-gold crown with flame-shaped points encircled his brows. The look of
him was a shock. He seemed ten years older than the man that Davos had left at Storm's End when he


set sail for the Blackwater and the battle that
would be their undoing. The king's close-cropped beard was spiderwebbed with grey hairs, and he had
dropped two stone or more of weight. He had never been a fleshy man, but now the bones moved
beneath his skin like spears, fighting to cut free. Even his crown seemed too large for his head. His eyes
were blue pits lost in deep hollows, and the shape of a skull could be seen beneath his face.
Yet when he saw Davos, a faint smile brushed his lips. "So the sea has returned me my knight of the fish
and onions."
"It did, Your Grace." Does he know that he had me in his dungeon? Davos went to one knee.
"Rise, Ser Davos," Stannis commanded. "I have missed you, ser. I have need of good counsel, and you
never gave me less. So tell me true - what is the penalty for treason?"
The word hung in the air. A frightful word, thought Davos. Was he being asked to condemn his
cellmate? Or himself, perchance? Kings know the penalty for treason better than any man. "Treason?" he
finally managed, weakly.
"What else would you call it, to deny your king and seek to steal his rightful throne. I ask you again -
what is the penalty for treason under the law?"
Davos had no choice but to answer. "Death," he said. "The penalty is death, Your Grace."
"It has always been so. I am not ... I am not a cruel man, Ser Davos. You know me. Have known me
long. This is not my decree. It has always been so, since Aegon's day and before. Daemon Blackfyre, the
brothers Toyne, the Vulture King, Grand Maester Hareth ... traitors have always paid with their lives ...
even Rhaenyra Targaryen. She was daughter to one king and mother to two more, yet she died a traitor's
death for trying to usurp her brother's crown. It is law. Law, Davos. Not cruelty."
"Yes, Your Grace." He does not speak of me. Davos felt a moment's pity for his cellmate down in the
dark. He knew he should keep silent, but he was tired and sick of heart, and he heard himself say, "Sire,
Lord Florent meant no treason."
"Do smugglers have another name for it? I made him Hand, and he would have sold my rights for a bowl
of pease porridge. He would even have given them Shireen. Mine only child, he would have wed to a
bastard bom of incest." The king's voice was thick with anger. "My brother had a gift for inspiring loyalty.
Even in his foes. At Surnmerhall he won three battles in a single day, and brought Lords Grandison and
Cafferen back to Storm's End as prisoners. He hung their banners in the hall as trophies. Cafferen's white
fawns were spotted with blood and Grandison's sleeping lion was torn near in two. Yet they would sit
beneath those banners of a night, drinking and feasting with Robert. He even took them hunting.
'These men meant to deliver you to Aerys to be burned' I told him after I saw them throwing axes in the
yard. 'You should not be putting axes in their hands.' Robert only laughed. I would have thrown
Grandison and Cafferen into a dungeon, but he turned them into friends. Lord Cafferen died at Ashford
Castle, cut down by Randyll Tarly whilst fighting for Robert. Lord Grandison was wounded on the
Trident and died of it a year after. My brother made them love him, but it would seem that I inspire only
betrayal. Even in mine own blood and kin. Brother, grandfather, cousins, good uncle..."
"Your Grace," said Ser Axell, "I beg you, give me the chance to prove to you that not all Florents are so
feeble."


"Ser Axell would have me resume the war," King Stannis told Davos. "The Lannisters think I am done
and beaten, and my swom lords have forsaken me, near every one. Even Lord Estermont, my own
mother's father, has bent his knee to Joffrey. The few loyal men who remain to me are losing heart. They
waste their days drinking and gambling, and lick their wounds like beaten curs."
"Battle will set their hearts ablaze once more, Your Grace," Ser Axell said. "Defeat is a disease, and
victory is the cure."
"Victory." The king's mouth twisted. "There are victories and victories, ser. But tell your plan to Ser
Davos. I would hear his views on what you propose."
Ser Axell turned to Davos, with a look on his face much like the look that proud Lord Belgrave must
have worn, the day King Baelor the Blessed had commanded him to wash the beggar's ulcerous feet.
Nonetheless, he obeyed.
The plan Ser Axell had devised with Salladhor Saan was simple. A few hours' sail from Dragonstone lay
Claw Isle, ancient sea-girt seat of House Celtigar. Lord Ardrian Celtigar had fought beneath the flery
heart on the Blackwater, but once taken, he had wasted no time in going over to Joffrey. He remained in
King's Landing even now. "Too frightened of His Grace's wrath to come near Dragonstone, no doubt,"
Ser Axell declared. "And wisely so. The man has betrayed his rightful king."
Ser Axell proposed to use Salladhor Saan's fleet and the men who had escaped the Blackwater -
Stannis still had some fifteen hundred on Dragonstone, more than half of them Florents - to exact
retribution for Lord Celtigar's defection. Claw Isle was but lightly garrisoned, its castle reputedly stuffed
with Myrish carpets, Volantene glass, gold and silver plate, jeweled cups, magnificent hawks, an axe of
Valyrian steel, a horn that could summon monsters from the deep, chests of rubies, and more wines than
a man could drink in a hundred years. Though Celtigar had shown the world a niggardly face, he had
never stinted on his own comforts. "Put his castle to the torch and his people to the sword, I say," Ser
Axell concluded. "Leave Claw Isle a desolation of ash and bone, fit only for carrion crows, so the realm
might see the fate of those who bed with Lannisters."
Stannis listened to Ser Axell's recitation in silence, grinding his jaw slowly from side to side. When it was
done, he said, "It could be done, I believe. The risk is small. Joffrey has no strength at sea until Lord
Redwyne sets sail from the Arbor. The plunder might serve to keep that Lysene pirate Salladhor Saan
loyal for a time. By itself Claw Isle is worthless, but its fall would serve notice to Lord Tywin that my
cause is not yet done." The king turned back to Davos. "Speak truly, ser. What do you make of Ser
Axell's proposal?"
Speak truly, ser. Davos remembered the dark cell he had shared with Lord Alester, remembered
Lamprey and Porridge. He thought of the promises that Ser Axell had made on the bridge above the
yard. A ship or a shove, what shall it be? But this was Stannis asking. "Your Grace," he said slowly, "I
make it folly ... aye, and cowardice."
"Cowardice?" Ser Axell all but shouted. "No man calls me craven before my king!"
"Silence," Stannis commanded. "Ser Davos, speak on, I would hear your reasons."
Davos turned to face Ser Axell. "You say we ought show the realm we are not done. Strike a blow.
Make war, aye ... but on what enemy? You will find no Lannisters on Claw Isle."


"We will find traitors," said Ser Axell, "though it may be I could find some closer to home. Even in this
very room."
Davos ignored the jibe. "I don't doubt Lord Celtigar bent the knee to the boy Joffrey. He is an old done
man, who wants no more than to end his days in his castle, drinking his fine wine out of his jeweled cups."
He turned back to Stannis. "Yet he came when you called, sire. Came, with his ships and swords. He
stood by you at Storm's End when Lord Renly came down on us, and his ships sailed up the Blackwater.
His men fought for you, killed for you, burned for you. Claw Isle is weakly held, yes. Held by women
and children and old men. And why is that? Because their husbands and sons and fathers died on the
Blackwater, that's why. Died at their oars, or with swords in their hands, fighting beneath our banners.
Yet Ser Axell proposes we swoop down on the homes they left behind, to rape their widows and put
their children to the sword. These smallfolk are no traitors. . . "
"They are," insisted Ser Axell. "Not all of Celtigar's men were slain on the Blackwater. Hundreds were
taken with their lord, and bent the knee when he did."
"When he did," Davos repeated. "They were his men. His swom men. What choice were they given?"
"Every man has choices. They might have refused to kneel. Some did, and died for it. Yet they died true
men, and loyal."
"Some men are stronger than others." It was a feeble answer, and Davos knew it. Stannis Baratheon
was a man of iron will who neither understood nor forgave weakness in others. I am losing, he thought,
despairing.
"It is every man's duty to remain loyal to his rightful king, even if the lord he serves proves false," Stannis
declared in a tone that brooked no argument.
A desperate folly took hold of Davos, a recklessness akin to madness. "As you remained loyal to King
Aerys when your brother raised his banners?" he blurted.
Shocked silence followed, until Ser Axell cried, "Treason!" and snatched his dagger from its sheath.
"Your Grace, he speaks his infamy to your face!"
Davos could hear Stannis grinding his teeth. A vein bulged, blue and swollen, in the king's brow. Their
eyes met. "Put up your knife, Ser Axell. And leave us."
"As it please Your Grace -
"It would please me for you to leave," said Stannis. "Take yourself from my presence, and send me
Melisandre."
"As you command." Ser Axell slid the knife away, bowed, and hurried toward the door. His boots rang
against the floor, angry.
"You have always presumed on my forbearance," Stannis warned Davos when they were alone. "I can
shorten your tongue as easy as I did your fingers, smuggler."
"I am your man, Your Grace. So it is your tongue, to do with as you please."


IlIt is," he said, calmer. "And I would have it speak the truth. Though the truth is a bitter draught at times.
Aerys~ If you only knew ... that was a hard choosing. My blood or my liege. My brother or my king."
He grimaced. "Have you ever seen the Iron Throne? The barbs along the back, the ribbons of twisted
steel, the jagged ends of swords and knives all tangled up and melted? It is not a comfortable seat, ser.
Aerys cut himself so often men took to calling him King Scab, and Maegor the Cruel was murdered in
that chair. By that chair, to hear some tell it. It is not a seat where a man can rest at ease. Ofttimes I
wonder why my brothers wanted it so desperately."
"Why would you want it, then?" Davos asked him.
"It is not a question of wanting. The throne is mine, as Robert's heir. That is law. After me, it must pass
to my daughter, unless Selyse should finally give me a son." He ran three fingers lightly down the table,
over the layers of smooth hard varnish, dark with age. "I am king. Wants do
not enter into it. I have a duty to my daughter. To the realm. Even to Robert. He loved me but little, I
know, yet he was my brother. The Lannister woman gave him horns and made a motley fool of him. She
may have murdered him as well, as she murdered Jon Arryn and Ned Stark. For such crimes there must
be justice. Starting with Cersei and her abominations. But only starting. I mean to scour that court clean.
As Robert should have done, after the Trident. Ser Barristan once told me that the rot in King Aerys's
reign began with Varys. The eunuch should never have been pardoned. No more than the Kingslayer. At
the least, Robert should have stripped the white cloak from Jaime and sent him to the Wall, as Lord
Stark urged. He listened to Jon Arryn instead. I was still at Storm's End, under siege and unconsulted."
He turned abruptly, to give Davos a hard shrewd look. "The truth, now. Why did you wish to murder
Lady Melisandre?"
So he does know Davos could not lie to him. "Four of my sons burned on the Blackwater. She gave
them to the flames."
"You wrong her. Those fires were no work of hers. Curse the Imp, curse the pyromancers, curse that
fool of Florent who sailed my fleet into the jaws of a trap. Or curse me for my stubborn pride, for
sending her away when I needed her most. But not Melisandre. She remains my faithful servant."
"Maester Cressen was your faithful servant. She slew him, as she killed Ser Cortnay Penrose and your
brother Renly."
"Now you sound a fool," the king complained. "She saw Renly's end in the flames, yes, but she had no
more part in it than I did. The priestess was with me. Your Devan would tell you so. Ask him, if you
doubt me. She would have spared Renly if she could. It was Melisandre who urged me to meet with him,
and give him one last chance to amend his treason. And it was Melisandre who told me to send for you
when Ser Axell wished to give you to R'hllor." He smiled thinly. "Does that surprise you?"
"Yes. She knows I am no friend to her or her red god."
"But you are a friend to me. She knows that as well." He beckoned Davos closer. "The boy is sick.
Maester Pylos has been leeching him."
"The boy?" His thoughts went to his Devan, the king's squire. "My son, sire? "
"Devan? A good boy. He has much of you in him. It is Robert's bastard who is sick, the boy we took at
Storm's End."


Edric Storm. "I spoke with him in Aegon's Garden."
"As she wished. As she saw." Stannis sighed. "Did the boy charm you? He has that gift. He got it from
his father, with the blood. He knows he is a king's son, but chooses to forget that he is bastard-born.
And he worships Robert, as Renly did when he was young. My royal brother
played the fond father on his visits to Storm's End, and there were gifts ... swords and ponies and
fur-trimmed cloaks. The eunuch's work, every one. The boy would write the Red Keep full of thanks,
and Robert would laugh and ask Varys what he'd sent this year. Renly was no better. He left the boy's
upbringing to castellans and maesters, and every one fell victim to his charm. Penrose chose to die rather
than give him up." The king ground his teeth together. "It still angers me. How could he think I would hurt
the boy? I chose Robert, did I not? When that hard day came. I chose blood over honor."
He does not use the boy's name. That made Davos very uneasy. hope young Edric will recover soon."
Stannis waved a hand, dismissing his concern. "It is a chill, no more. He coughs, he shivers, he has a
fever. Maester Pylos will soon set him right. By himself the boy is nought, you understand, but in his veins
flows my brother's blood. There is power in a king's blood, she says."
Davos did not have to ask who she was.
Stannis touched the Painted Table. "Look at it, onion knight. My realm, by rights. My Westeros." He
swept a hand across it. "This talk of Seven Kingdoms is a folly. Aegon saw that three hundred years ago
when he stood where we are standing. They painted this table at his command. Rivers and bays they
painted, hills and mountains, castles and cities and market towns, lakes and swamps and forests ... but no
borders. It is all one. One realm, for one king to rule alone."
"One kin&" agreed Davos. "One king means peace."
"I shall bring justice to Westeros. A thing Ser Axell understands as little as he does war. Claw Isle would
gain me naught ... and it was evil, just as you said. Celtigar must pay the traitor's price himself, in his own
person. And when I come into my kingdom, he shall. Every man shall reap what he has sown, from the
highest lord to the lowest gutter rat. And some will lose more than the tips off their fingers, I promise you.
They have made my kingdom bleed, and I do not forget that." King Stannis turned from the table. "On
your knees, Onion Knight."
"Your Grace?"
"For your onions and fish, I made you a knight once. For this, I am of a mind to raise you to lord."
This? Davos was lost. "I am content to be your knight, Your Grace. I would not know how to begin
being lordly."
"Good. To be lordly is to be false. I have learned that lesson hard. Now, kneel. Your king commands."
Davos knelt, and Stannis drew his longsword. Lightbringer, Melisandre had named it; the red sword of
heroes, drawn from the fires where the seven gods were consumed. The room seemed to grow brighter
as the blade slid from its scabbard. The steel had a glow to it; now orange, now yellow, now
red. The air shimmered around it, and no jewel had ever sparkled so brilliantly. But when Stannis
touched it to Davos's shoulder, it felt no different than any other longsword. "Ser Davos of House


Seaworth," the king said, /are you my true and honest liege man, now and forever?"
"I am, Your Grace."
"And do you swear to serve me loyally all your days, to give me honest counsel and swift obedience, to
defend my rights and my realm against all foes in battles great and small, to protect my people and punish
my enemies?"
"I do, Your Grace."
"Then rise again, Davos Seaworth, and rise as Lord of the Rainwood, Admiral of the Narrow Sea, and
Hand of the King."
For a moment Davos was too stunned to move. I woke this morning in his dungeon. "Your Grace, you
cannot ... I am no fit man to be a King's Hand."
"There is no man fitter." Stannis sheathed Lightbringer, gave Davos his hand, and pulled him to his feet.
"I am lowbom," Davos reminded him. "An upjumped smuggler. Your lords will never obey me."
"Then we will make new lords."
"But ... I cannot read ... nor write. . .
"Maester Pylos can read for you. As to writing, my last Hand wrote the head off his shoulders. All I ask
of you are the things you've always given me. Honesty. Loyalty. Service."
"Surely there is someone better ... some great lord. .
Stannis snorted. "Bar Emmon, that boy? My faithless grandfather? Celtigar has abandoned me, the new
Velaryon is six years old, and the new Sunglass sailed for Volantis after I burned his brother." He made
an angry gesture. "A few good men remain, it's true. Ser Gilbert Farring holds Storm's End for me still,
with two hundred loyal men. Lord Morrigen, the Bastard of Nightsong, young Chyttering, my cousin
Andrew ... but I trust none of them as I trust you, my lord of Rainwood. You will be my Hand. It is you I
want beside me for the battle."
Another battle will be the end of all of us, thought Davos. Lord Alester saw that much true enough.
"Your Grace asked for honest counsel. In honesty then ... we lack the strength for another battle against
the Lannisters."
"It is the great battle His Grace is speaking of," said a woman's voice, rich with the accents of the east.
Melisandre stood at the door in her red silks and shimmering satins, holding a covered silver dish in her
hands. "These little wars are no more than a scuffle of children before what is to come. The one whose
name may not be spoken is marshaling his power, Davos Seaworth, a power fell and evil and strong
beyond measure.
Soon comes the cold, and the night that never ends." She placed the silver dish on the Painted Table.
"Unless true men find the courage to fight it. Men whose hearts are fire."
Stannis stared at the silver dish. "She has shown it to me, Lord Davos. In the flames."


"You saw it, sire?" It was not like Stannis Baratheon to lie about such a thing.
"With mine own eyes. After the battle, when I was lost to despair, the Lady Melisandre bid me gaze into
the hearthfire. The chimney was drawing strongly, and bits of ash were rising from the fire. I stared at
them, feeling half a fool, but she bid me look deeper, and ... the ashes were white, rising in the updraft,
yet all at once it seemed as if they were falling. Snow, I thought. Then the sparks in the air seemed to
circle, to become a ring of torches, and I was looking through the fire down on some high hill in a forest.
The cinders had become men in black behind the torches, and there were shapes moving through the
snow. For all the heat of the fire, I felt a cold so terrible I shivered, and when I did the sight was gone,
the fire but a fire once again. But what I saw was real, I'd stake my kingdom on it."
"And have," said Melisandre.
The conviction in the king's voice frightened Davos to the core. "A hill in a forest ... shapes in the snow
... I don't..."
"It means that the battle is begun," said Melisandre. "The sand is running through the glass more quickly
now, and man's hour on earth is almost done. We must act boldly, or all hope is lost. Westeros must
unite beneath her one true king, the prince that was promised, Lord of Dragonstone and chosen of
R'hllor."
"R'hllor chooses queerly, then." The king grimaced, as if he'd tasted something foul. "Why me, and not
my brothers? Renly and his peach. in my dreams I see the juice running from his mouth, the blood from
his throat. If he had done his duty by his brother, we would have smashed Lord Tywin. A victory even
Robert could be proud of. Robert ... " His teeth ground side to side. "He is in my dreams as well.
Laughing. Drinking. Boasting. Those were the things he was best at. Those, and fighting. I never bested
him at anything. The Lord of Light should have made Robert his champion. Why me?"
"Because you are a righteous man," said Melisandre.
"A righteous man." Stannis touched the covered silver platter with a finger. "With leeches."
"Yes," said Melisandre, "but I must tell you once more, this is not the way."
"You swore it would work." The king looked angry.
"It will ... and it will not."
"Which?"
"Both."
"Speak sense to me, woman."
"When the fires speak more plainly, so shall 1. There is truth in the flames, but it is not always easy to
see." The great ruby at her throat drank fire from the glow of the brazier. "Give me the boy, Your Grace.
It is the surer way. The better way. Give me the boy and I shall wake the stone dragon."
"I have told you, no."
"He is only one baseborn boy, against all the boys of Westeros, and all the girls as well. Against all the


children that might ever be born, in all the kingdoms of the world."
"The boy is innocent."
"The boy defiled your marriage bed, else you would surely have sons of your own. He shamed you."
"Robert did that. Not the boy. My daughter has grown fond of him. And he is mine own blood."
"Your brother's blood," Melisandre said. "A king's blood. Only a king's blood can wake the stone
dragon."
Stannis ground his teeth. "I'll hear no more of this. The dragons are done. The Targaryens tried to bring
them back half a dozen times. And made fools of themselves, or corpses. Patchface is the only fool we
need on this godsforsaken rock. You have the leeches. Do your work."
Melisandre bowed her head stiffly, and said, "As my king commands." Reaching up her left sleeve with
her right hand, she flung a handful of powder into the brazier. The coals roared. As pale flames writhed
atop them, the red woman retrieved the silver dish and brought it to the king. Davos watched her lift the
lid. Beneath were three large black leeches, fat with blood.
The boy's blood, Davos knew. A king's blood.
Stannis stretched forth a hand, and his fingers closed around one of the leeches.
"Say the name," Melisandre commanded.
The leech was twisting in the king's grip, trying to attach itself to one of his fingers. "The usurper," he
said. "Joffrey Baratheon." When he tossed the leech into the fire, it curled up like an autumn leaf amidst
the coals, and burned.
Stannis grasped the second. "The usurper," he declared, louder this time. "Balon Greyjoy." He flipped it
lightly onto the brazier, and its flesh split and cracked. The blood burst from it, hissing and smoking.
The last was in the king's hand. This one he studied a moment as it writhed between his fingers. "The
usurper," he said at last. "Robb Stark." And he threw it on the flames.
Chapter 37
JAIME
Harrenhal's bathhouse was a dim, steamy, low-ceilinged room filled with great stone tubs. When they led
Jaime in, they found Brienne seated in one of them, scrubbing her arm almost angrily.
"Not so hard, wench," he called. "You'll scrub the skin off." She dropped her brush and covered her
teats with hands as big as Gregor Clegane's. The pointy little buds she was so intent on hiding would have
looked more natural on some ten-year-old than they did on her thick muscular chest.


"What are you doing here?" she demanded.
"Lord Bolton insists I sup with him, but he neglected to invite my fleas." Jaime tugged at his guard with
his left hand. "Help me out of these stinking rags." One-handed, he could not so much as unlace his
breeches. The man obeyed grudgingly, but he obeyed. "Now leave us," Jaime said when his clothes lay in
a pile on the wet stone floor. "My lady of Tarth doesn't want the likes of you scum gaping at her teats."
He pointed his stump at the hatchet-faced woman attending Brienne. "You too. Wait without. There's
only the one door, and the wench is too big to try and shinny up a chimney."
The habit of obedience went deep. The woman followed his guard out, leaving the bathhouse to the two
of them. The tubs were large enough to hold six or seven, after the fashion of the Free Cities, so Jaime
climbed in with the wench, awkward and slow. Both his eyes were open, though the right remained
somewhat swollen, despite Qybum's leeches. Jaime felt a hundred and nine years old, which was a deal
better than he had been feeling when he came to Harrenhal.
Brienne shrunk away from him. "There are other tubs."
"This one suits me well enough." Gingerly, he immersed himself up to the chin in the steaming water.
"Have no fear, wench. Your thighs are purple and green, and I'm not interested in what you've got
between them." He had to rest his right arm on the rim, since Qyburn had warned him to keep the linen
dry. He could feel the tension drain from his legs, but his head spun. "if I faint, pull me out. No Lannister
has ever drowned in his bath and I don't mean to be the first."
"Why should I care how you die?"
"You swore a solemn vow." He smiled as a red flush crept up the thick white column of her neck. She
turned her back to him. "Still the shy maiden? What is it that you think I haven't seen?" He groped for the
brush she had dropped, caught it with his fingers, and began to scrub himself desultorily. Even that was
difficult, awkward. My left hand is good for nothing.
Still, the water darkened as the caked dirt dissolved off his skin. The wench kept her back to him, the
muscles in her great shoulders hunched and hard.
"Does the sight of my stump distress you so?" Jaime asked. "You ought to be pleased. I've lost the hand
I killed the king with. The hand that flung the Stark boy from that tower. The hand I'd slide between my
sister's thighs to make her wet." He thrust his stump at her face. "No wonder Renly died, with you
guarding him."
She jerked to her feet as if he'd struck her, sending a wash of hot water across the tub. Jaime caught a
glimpse of the thick blonde bush at the juncture of her thighs as she climbed out. She was much hairier
than his sister. Absurdly, he felt his cock stir beneath the bathwater. Now I know I have been too long
away from Cersei. He averted his eyes, troubled by his body's response. "That was unworthy," he
mumbled. "I'm a maimed man, and bitter. Forgive me, wench. You protected me as well as any man
could have, and better than most."
She wrapped her nakedness in a towel. "Do you mock me?"
That pricked him back to anger. "Are you as thick as a castle wall? That was an apology. I am tired of
fighting with you. What say we make a truce?
"Truces are built on trust. Would you have me trust - "


"The Kingslayer, yes. The oathbreaker who murdered poor sad Aerys Targaryen. " Jaime snorted. "It's
not Aerys I rue, it's Robert. 'I hear they've named you Kingslayer' he said to me at his coronation feast.
'Just don't think to make it a habit.' And he laughed. Why is it that no one names Robert oathbreaker?
He tore the realm apart, yet I am the one with shit for honor."
"Robert did all he did for love." Water ran down Brienne's legs and pooled beneath her feet.
"Robert did all he did for pride, a cunt, and a pretty face." He made a fist ... or would have, if he'd had a
hand. Pain lanced up his arm, cruel as laughter.
"He rode to save the realm," she insisted.
To save the realm. "Did you know that my brother set the Blackwater Rush afire? Wildfire will burn on
water. Aerys would have bathed in it if he'd dared. The Targaryens were all mad for fire." Jaime felt
lightheaded. It is the heat in here, the poison in my blood, the last of my fever. I am not myself. He eased
himself down until the water reached his chin. "Soiled my white cloak ... I wore my gold armor that day,
but..."
"Gold armor?" Her voice sounded far off, faint.
He floated in heat, in memory. "After dancing griffins lost the Battle of the Bells, Aerys exiled him." Why
am I telling this absurd ugly child? "He had finally realized that Robert was no mere outlaw lord to be
crushed at whim, but the greatest threat House Targaryen had faced since Daemon Blackfyre. The king
reminded Lewyn Martell gracelessly that he held Elia and sent him to take command of the ten thousand
Domishmen coming up the kingsroad. Jon Darry and Barristan Selmy rode to Stoney Sept to rally what
they could of griffins' men, and Prince Rhaegar returned from the south and persuaded his father to
swallow his pride and summon my father. But no raven returned from Casterly Rock, and that made the
king even more afraid. He saw traitors everywhere, and Varys was always there to point out any he
might have missed. So His Grace commanded his alchemists to place caches of wildfire all over King's
Landing. Beneath Baelor's Sept and the hovels of Flea Bottom, under stables and storehouses, at all
seven gates, even in the cellars of the Red Keep itself.
"Everything was done in the utmost secrecy by a handful of master pyromancers. They did not even trust
their own acolytes to help. The queen's eyes had been closed for years, and Rhaegar was busy
marshaling an army. But Aerys's new mace-and-dagger Hand was not utterly stupid, and with Rossart,
Belis, and Garigus coming and going night and day, he became suspicious. Chelsted, that was his name,
Lord Chelsted." It had come back to him suddenly, with the telling. "I'd thought the man craven, but the
day he confronted Aerys he found some courage somewhere. He did all he could to dissuade him. He
reasoned, he jested, he threatened, and finally he begged. When that failed he took off his chain of office
and flung it down on the floor. Aerys burnt him alive for that, and hung his chain about the neck of
Rossart, his favorite pyromancer. The man who had cooked Lord Rickard Stark in his own armor. And
all the time, I stood by the foot of the iron Throne in my white plate, still as a corpse, guarding my liege
and all his sweet secrets.
"My Sworn Brothers were all away, you see, but Aerys liked to keep
me close. I was my father's son, so he did not trust me. He wanted me where Varys could watch me,
day and night. So I heard it all." He remembered how Rossart's eyes would shine when he unrolled his
maps to show where the substance must be placed. Garigus and Belis were the same. "Rhaegar met
Robert on the Trident, and you know what happened there. When the word reached court, Aerys


packed the queen off to Dragonstone with Prince Viserys. Princess Elia would have gone as well, but he
forbade it. Somehow he had gotten it in his head that Prince Lewyn must have betrayed Rhaegar on the
Trident, but he thought he could keep Dome loyal so long as he kept Elia and Aegon by his side. The
traitors want my city, I heard him tell Rossart, but I'll give them naught but ashes. Let Robert be king over
charred bones and cooked meat. The Targaryens never bury their dead, they bum them. Aerys meant to
have the greatest funeral pyre of them all. Though if truth be told, I do not believe he truly expected to
die. Like Aerion Brightfire before him, Aerys thought the fire would transform him. . . that he would rise
again, reborn as a dragon, and turn all his enemies to ash.
"Ned Stark was racing south with Robert's van, but my father's forces reached the city first. Pycelle
convinced the king that his Warden of the West had come to defend him, so he opened the gates. The
one time he should have heeded Varys, and he ignored him. My father had held back from the war,
brooding on all the wrongs Aerys had done him and determined that House Lannister should be on the
winning side. The Trident decided him.
"It fell to me to hold the Red Keep, but I knew we were lost. I sent to Aerys asking his leave to make
terms. My man came back with a royal command. 'Bring me your father's head, if you are no traitor.'
Aerys would have no yielding. Lord Rossart was with him, my messenger said. I knew what that meant.
"When I came on Rossart, he was dressed as a common man-at-arms, hurrying to a postern gate. I slew
him first. Then I slew Aerys, before he could find someone else to carry his message to the pyromancers.
Days later, I hunted down the others and slew them as well. Belis offered me gold, and Garigus wept for
mercy. Well, a sword's more merciful than fire, but I don't think Garigus much appreciated the kindness I
showed him."
The water had grown cool. When Jaime opened his eyes, he found himself staring at the stump of his
sword hand. The hand that made me Kingslayer. The goat had robbed him of his glory and his shame,
both at once. Leaving what? Who am I now?
The wench looked ridiculous, clutching her towel to her meager teats with her thick white legs sticking
out beneath. "Has my tale turned you speechless? Come, curse me or kiss me or call me a liar.
Something."
"If this is true, how is it no one knows?"
"The knights of the Kingsguard are sworn to keep the king's secrets. Would you have me break my
oath?" Jaime laughed. "Do you think the noble Lord of Winterfell wanted to hear my feeble explanations?
Such an honorable man. He only had to look at me to judge me guilty." Jaime lurched to his feet, the
water running cold down his chest. "By what right does the wolf judge the lion? By what right?" A violent
shiver took him, and he smashed his stump against the rim of the tub as he tried to climb out.
Pain shuddered through him ... and suddenly the bathhouse was spinning. Brienne caught him before he
could fall. Her arm was all gooseflesh, clammy and chilled, but she was strong, and gentler than he would
have thought. Gentler than Cersei, he thought as she helped him from the tub, his legs wobbly as a limp
cock. "Guards!" he heard the wench shout. "The Kingslayer!"
Jaime, he thought, my name is Jaime.
The next he knew, he was lying on the damp floor with the guards and the wench and Qybum all
standing over him looking concerned. Brienne was naked, but she seemed to have forgotten that for the
moment. "The heat of the tubs will do it," Maester Qyburn was telling them. No, he's not a maester, they


took his chain. "There's still poison in his blood as well, and he's malnourished. What have you been
feeding him?"
"Worms and piss and grey vomit," offered Jaime.
"Hardbread and water and oat porridge," insisted the guard. "He don't hardly eat it, though. What should
we do with him?"
"Scrub him and dress him and carry him to Kingspyre, if need be," Qyburn said. "Lord Bolton insists he
will sup with him tonight. The time is growing short."
"Bring me clean garb for him," Brienne said, "I'll see that he's washed and dressed."
The others were all too glad to give her the task. They lifted him to his feet and sat him on a stone bench
by the wall. Brienne went away to retrieve her towel, and returned with a stiff brush to finish scrubbing
him. One of the guards gave her a razor to trim his beard. Qyburn returned with roughspun smallclothes,
clean black woolen breeches, a loose green tunic, and a leather jerkin that laced up the front. Jaime was
feeling less dizzy by then, though no less clumsy. With the wench's help he managed to dress himself.
"Now all I need is a silver looking glass."
The Bloody Maester had brought fresh clothing for Brienne as well; a stained pink satin gown and a linen
undertunic. "I am sorry, my lady. These were the only women's garments in Harrenhal large enough to fit
YOU."
It was obvious at once that the gown had been cut for someone with
slimmer arms, shorter legs, and much fuller breasts. The fine Myrish lace did little to conceal the bruising
that mottled Brienne's skin. All in all, the garb made the wench look ludicrous. She has thicker shoulders
than I do, and a bigger neck, Jaime thought. Small wonder she prefers to dress in mail. Pink was not a
kind color for her either. A dozen cruel japes leaped into his head, but for once he kept them there. Best
not to make her angry; he was no match for her one-handed.
Qyburn had brought a flask as well. "What is it?" Jaime demanded when the chainless maester pressed
him to drink.
"Licorice steeped in vinegar, with honey and cloves. It will give you some strength and clear your head."
"Bring me the potion that grows new hands," said Jaime. "That's the one I want."
"Drink it," Brienne said, unsmiling, and he did.
It was half an hour before he felt strong enough to stand. After the dim wet warmth of the bathhouse, the
air outside was a slap across the face. "M'lord will be looking for him by now," a guard told Qyburn.
"Her too. Do I need to carry him?"
"I can still walk. Brienne, give me your arm."
Clutching her, Jaime let them herd him across the yard to a vast draughty hall, larger even than the throne
room in King's Landing. Huge hearths lined the walls, one every ten feet or so, more than he could count,
but no fires had been lit, so the chill between the walls went bone-deep. A dozen spearmen in fur cloaks
guarded the doors and the steps that led up to the two galleries above. And in the center of that immense


emptiness, at a trestle table surrounded by what seemed like acres of smooth slate floor, the Lord of the
Dreadfort waited, attended only by a cupbearer.
"My lord," said Brienne, when they stood before him.
Roose Bolton's eyes were paler than stone, darker than milk, and his voice was spider soft. "I am
pleased that you are strong enough to attend me, ser. My lady, do be seated." He gestured at the spread
of cheese, bread, cold meat, and fruit that covered the table. "Will you drink red or white? Of indifferent
vintage, I fear. Ser Amory drained Lady Whent's cellars nearly dry."
"I trust you killed him for it." Jaime slid into the offered seat quickly, so Bolton could not see how weak
he was. "White is for Starks. I'll drink red like a good Lannister."
"I would prefer water," said Brienne.
"Elmar, the red for Ser Jaime, water for the Lady Brienne, and hippocras for myself." Bolton waved a
hand at their escort, dismissing them, and the men beat a silent retreat.
Habit made Jaime reach for his wine with his right hand. His stump
rocked the goblet, spattering his clean linen bandages with bright red spots and forcing him to catch the
cup with his left hand before it fell, but Bolton pretended not to notice his clumsiness. The northman
helped himself to a prune and ate it with small sharp bites. "Do try these, Ser Jaime. They are most
sweet, and help move the bowels as well. Lord Vargo took them from an inn before he burnt it."
"My bowels move fine, that goat's no lord, and your prunes don't interest me half so much as your
intentions."
"Regarding you?" A faint smile touched Roose Bolton's lips. "You are a perilous prize, ser. You sow
dissension wherever you go. Even here, in my happy house of Harrenhal." His voice was a whisker
above a whisper. "And in Riverrun as well, it seems. Do you know, Edmure Tully has offered a thousand
golden dragons for your recapture?"
Is that all? "My sister will pay ten times as much."
"Will she?" That smile again, there for an instant, gone as quick. "Ten thousand dragons is a formidable
sum. Of course, there is Lord Karstark's offer to consider as well. He promises the hand of his daughter
to the man who brings him your head."
"Leave it to your goat to get it backward," said Jaime.
Bolton gave a soft chuckle. "Harrion Karstark was captive here when we took the castle, did you
know? I gave him all the Karhold men still with me and sent him off with Glover. I do hope nothing ill
befell him at Duskendale ... else Alys Karstark would be all that remains of Lord Rickard's progeny." He
chose another prune. "Fortunately for you, I have no need of a wife. I wed the Lady Walda Frey whilst I
was at the Twins."
"Fair Walda? " Awkwardly, Jaime tried to hold the bread with his stump while tearing it with his left
hand.
"Fat Walda. My lord of Frey offered me my bride's weight in silver for a dowry, so I chose accordingly.


Elmar, break off some bread for Ser Jaime."
The boy tore a fist-sized chunk off one end of the loaf and handed it to Jaime. Brienne tore her own
bread. "Lord Bolton," she asked, "it's said you mean to give Harrenhal to Vargo Hoat."
"That was his price," Lord Bolton said. "The Lannisters are not the only men who pay their debts. I must
take my leave soon in any case. Edmure Tully is to wed the Lady Roslin Frey at the Twins, and my king
commands my attendance."
"Edmure weds?" said Jaime. "Not Robb Stark?"
"His Grace King Robb is wed." Bolton spit a prune pit into his hand and put it aside. "To a Westerling of
the Crag. I am told her name is Jeyne. No doubt you know her, ser. Her father is your father's
bannerman."
"My father has a good many bannermen, and most of them have daughters." Jaime groped one-handed
for his goblet, trying to recall this Jeyne. The Westerlings were an old house, with more pride than power.
"This cannot be true," Brienne said stubbornly. "King Robb was sworn to wed a Frey. He would never
break faith, he - "
"His Grace is a boy of sixteen," said Roose Bolton mildly. "And I would thank you not to question my
word, my lady."
Jaime felt almost sorry for Robb Stark. He won the war on the battlefield and lost it in a bedchamber,
poor fool. "How does Lord Walder relish dining on trout in place of wolf?" he asked.
"Oh, trout makes for a tasty supper." Bolton lifted a pale finger toward his cupbearer. "Though my poor
Elmar is bereft. He was to wed Arya Stark, but my good father of Frey had no choice but to break the
betrothal when King Robb betrayed him."
"Is there word of Arya Stark?" Brienne leaned forward. "Lady Catelyn had feared that ... is the girl still
alive?"
"Oh, yes," said the Lord of the Dreadfort.
"You have certain knowledge of that, my lord?"
Roose Bolton shrugged. "Arya Stark was lost for a time, it was true, but now she has been found. I
mean to see her returned safely to the north."
"Her and her sister both," said Brienne. "Tyrion Lannister has promised us both girls for his brother."
That seemed to amuse the Lord of the Dreadfort. "My lady, has no one told you? Lannisters lie."
"Is that a slight on the honor of my House?" Jaime picked up the cheese knife with his good hand. "A
rounded point, and dull," he said, sliding his thumb along the edge of the blade, "but it will go through
your eye all the same." Sweat beaded his brow. He could only hope he did not look as feeble as he felt.
Lord Bolton's little smile paid another visit to his lips. "You speak boldly for a man who needs help to
break his bread. My guards are all around us, I remind you."


"All around us, and half a league away." Jaime glanced down the vast length of the hall. "By the time they
reach us, you'll be as dead as Aerys."
"'Tis scarcely chivalrous to threaten your host over his own cheese and olives," the Lord of the Dreadfort
scolded. "In the north, we hold the laws of hospitality sacred still."
"I'm a captive here, not a guest. Your goat cut off my hand. if you think some prunes will make me
overlook that, you're bloody well mistaken."
That took Roose Bolton aback. "Perhaps I am. Perhaps I ought to make a wedding gift of you to
Edmure Tully ... or strike your head off, as your sister did for Eddard Stark."
"I would not advise it. Casterly Rock has a long memory."
"A thousand leagues of mountain, sea, and bog lie between my walls and your rock. Lannister enmity
means little to Bolton."
"Lannister friendship could mean much." Jaime thought he knew the game they were playing now. But
does the wench know as well? He dare not look to see.
"I am not certain you are the sort of friends a wise man would want." Roose Bolton beckoned to the
boy. "Elmar, carve our guests a slice off the roast."
Brienne was served first, but made no move to eat. "My lord," she said, "Ser Jaime is to be exchanged
for Lady Catelyn's daughters. You must free us to continue on our way."
"The raven that came from Riverrun told of an escape, not an exchange. And if you helped this captive
slip his bonds, you are guilty of treason, my lady."
The big wench rose to her feet. "I serve Lady Stark."
"And I the King in the North. Or the King Who Lost the North, as some now call him. Who never
wished to trade Ser Jaime back to the Lannisters."
"Sit down and eat, Brienne," Jaime urged, as Elmar placed a slice of roast before him, dark and bloody.
"If Bolton meant to kill us, he wouldn't be wasting his precious prunes on us, at such peril to his bowels."
He stared at the meat and realized there was no way to cut it, one-handed. I am worth less than a girl
now, he thought. The goat's evened the trade, though I doubt Lady Catelyn will thank him when Cersei
returns her whelps in like condition. The thought made him grimace. I will get the blame for that as well,
I'll wager.
Roose Bolton cut his meat methodically, the blood running across his plate. "Lady Brienne, will you sit if
I tell you that I hope to send Ser Jaime on, just as you and Lady Stark desire?"
"I ... you'd send us on?" The wench sounded wary, but she sat. "That is good, my lord."
"It is. However, Lord Vargo has created me one small ... difficulty." He turned his pale eyes on Jaime.
"Do you know why Hoat cut off your hand?"
"He enjoys cutting off hands." The linen that covered Jaime's stump was spotted with blood and wine.


"He enjoys cutting off feet as well. He doesn't seem to need a reason."
"Nonetheless, he had one. Hoat is more cunning than he appears. No man commands a company such
as the Brave Companions for long unless he has some wits about him." Bolton stabbed a chunk of meat
with the point of his dagger, put it in his mouth, chewed thoughtfully, swallowed. "Lord Vargo abandoned
House Lannister because I offered him Harrenhal, a reward a thousand times greater than any he could
hope to have from Lord Tywin. As a stranger to Westeros, he did not know the prize was poisoned."
"The curse of Harren the Black?" mocked Jaime.
"The curse of Tywin Lannister." Bolton held out his goblet and Elmar refilled it silently. "Our goat should
have consulted the Tarbecks or the Reynes. They might have warned him how your lord father deals with
betrayal."
"There are no Tarbecks or Reynes," said Jaime.
"My point precisely. Lord Vargo doubtless hoped that Lord Starmis would triumph at King's Landing,
and thence confirm him in his possession of this castle in gratitude for his small part in the downfall of
House Lannister." He gave a dry chuckle. "He knows little of Starmis Baratheon either, I fear. That one
might have given him Harrenhal for his service ... but he would have given him a noose for his crimes as
well."
"A noose is kinder than what he'll get from my father."
"By now he has come to the same realization. With Stannis broken and Renly dead, only a Stark victory
can save him from Lord Tywin's vengeance, but the chances of that grow perishingly slim."
"King Robb has won every battle," Brienne said stoutly, as stubbornly loyal of speech as she was of
deed.
"Won every battle, while losing the Freys, the Karstarks, Winterfell, and the north. A pity the wolf is so
young. Boys of sixteen always believe they are immortal and invincible. An older man would bend the
knee, I'd think. After a war there is always a peace, and with peace there are pardons ... for the Robb
Starks, at least. Not for the likes of Vargo Hoat." Bolton gave him a small smile. "Both sides have made
use of him, but neither will shed a tear at his passing. The Brave Companions did not fight in the Battle of
the Blackwater, yet they died there all the same."
"You'll forgive me if I don't mourn?"
"You have no pity for our wretched doomed goat? Ah, but the gods must ... else why deliver you into
his hands?" Bolton chewed another chunk of meat. "Karhold is smaller and meaner than Harrenhal, but it
lies well beyond the reach of the lion's claws. Once wed to Alys Karstark, Hoat might be a lord in truth.
If he could collect some gold from your father so much the better, but he would have delivered you to
Lord Rickard no matter how much Lord Tywin paid. His price would be the maid, and safe refuge.
"But to sell you he must keep you, and the riverlands are full of those who would gladly steal you away.
Glover and Tallhart were broken at Duskendale, but remnants of their host are still abroad, with the
Mountain slaughtering the stragglers. A thousand Karstarks prowl the lands south and east of Riverrun,
hunting you. Elsewhere are Darry men left lordless and lawless, packs of four-footed wolves, and the
lightning lord's outlaw bands. Dondarrion would gladly hang you and the goat together


from the same tree." The Lord of the Dreadfort sopped up some of the blood with a chunk of bread.
"Harrenhal was the only place Lord Vargo could hope to hold you safe, but here his Brave Companions
are much outnumbered by my own men, and by Ser Aenys and his Freys. No doubt he feared I might
return you to Ser Edmure at Riverrun ... or worse, send you on to your father.
"By maiming you, he meant to remove your sword as a threat, gain himself a grisly token to send to your
father, and diminish your value to me. For he is my man, as I am King Robb's man. Thus his crime is
mine, or may seem so in your father's eyes. And therein lies my ... small difficulty." He gazed at Jaime, his
pale eyes unblinking, expectant, chill.
I see. "You want me to absolve you of blame. To tell my father that this stump is no work of yours."
Jaime laughed. "My lord, send me to Cersei, and I'll sing as sweet a song as you could want, of how
gently you treated me." Any other answer, he knew, and Bolton would give him back to the goat. "Had I
a hand, I'd write it out. How I was maimed by the sellsword my own father brought to Westeros, and
saved by the noble Lord Bolton."
"I will trust to your word, ser."
There's something I don't often hear. "How soon might we be permitted to leave? And how do you
mean to get me past all these wolves and brigands and Karstarks?"
"You will leave when Qyburn says you are strong enough, with a strong escort of picked men under the
command of my captain, Walton. Steelshanks, he is called. A soldier of iron loyalty. Walton will see you
safe and whole to King's Landing."
"Provided Lady Catelyn's daughters are delivered safe and whole as well," said the wench. "My lord,
your man Walton's protection is welcome, but the girls are my charge."
The Lord of the Dreadfort gave her an uninterested glance. "The girls need not concern you any further,
my lady. The Lady Sansa is the dwarf's wife, only the gods can part them now."
"His wife?" Brienne said, appalled. "The Imp? But ... he swore, before the whole court, in sight of gods
and men. . . "
She is such an innocent. Jaime was almost as surprised, if truth be told, but he hid it better. Sansa Stark,
that ought to put a smile on Tyrion's face. He remembered how happy his brother had been with his little
crofter's daughter ... for a fortnight.
"What the Imp did or did nor swear scarcely matters now," said Lord Bolton. "Least of all to you." The
wench looked almost wounded. Perhaps she finally felt the steel jaws of the trap when Roose Bolton
beckoned to his guards. "Ser Jaime will continue on to King's Landing. I said nothing
about you, I fear. it would be unconscionable of me to deprive Lord Vargo of both his prizes." The Lord
of the Dreadfort reached out to pick another prune. "Were I you, my lady, I should worry less about
Starks and rather more about sapphires.
Chapter 38
TYRION


A horse whickered impatiently behind him, from amidst the ranks of gold cloaks drawn up across the
road. Tyrion could hear Lord Gyles coughing as well. He had not asked for Gyles, no more than he'd
asked for Ser Addam. or Jalabhar Xho or any of the rest, but his lord father felt Doran Martell might
take it ill if only a dwarf came out to escort him across the Blackwater.
Joffrey should have met the Dornishmen himself, he reflected as he sat waiting, but he would have
mucked it up, no doubt. Of late the king had been repeating little jests about the Dornish that he'd picked
up from Mace Tyrell's men-atarms. How many Dornishmen does it take to shoe a horse? Nine. One to
do the shoeing, and eight to lift the horse up. Somehow Tyrion did not think Doran Martell would find
that amusing.
He could see their banners flying as the riders emerged from the green of the living wood in a long dusty
column. From here to the river, only bare black trees remained, a legacy of his battle. Too many banners,
he thought sourly, as he watched the ashes kick up under the hooves of the approaching horses, as they
had beneath the hooves of the Tyrell van as it smashed Stannis in the flank. Martell's brought half the
lords of Dorne, by the look of it. He tried to think of some good that might come of that, and failed.
"How many banners do you count?" he asked Brorm.
The sellsword knight shaded his eyes. "Eight ... no, nine."
Tyrion turned in his saddle. "Pod, come up here. Describe the arms you see, and tell me which houses
they represent."
Podrick Payne edged his gelding closer. He was carrying the royal standard, Joffrey's great
stag-and-lion, and struggling with its weight.
Bronn bore Tyrion's own banner, the lion of Lannister gold on crimson. He's getting taller, Tyrion
realized as Pod stood in his stirrups for a better look. He'll soon tower over me like all the rest. The lad
had been making a diligent study of Domish heraldry, at Tyrion's command, but as ever he was nervous.
"I can't see. The wind is flapping them."
"Bronn, tell the boy what you see."
Bronn looked very much the knight today, in his new doublet and cloak, the flaming chain across his
chest. "A red sun on orange," he called, "with a spear through its back."
"Martell," Podrick Payne said at once, visibly relieved. "House Martell of Sunspear, my lord. The Prince
of Dome."
"My horse would have known that one," said Tyrion dryly. "Give him another, Bronn."
"There's a purple flag with yellow balls.
"Lemons?" Pod said hopefully. "A purple fleld strewn with lemons? For House Dalt? Of, of
Lemonwood."
"Might be. Next's a big black bird on yellow. Something pink or white in its claws, hard to say with the
banner flapping."


"The vulture of Blackmont grasps a baby in its talons," said Pod. "House Blackmont of Blackmont, ser."
Bronn laughed. "Reading books again? Books will ruin your sword eye, boy. I see a skull too. A black
banner."
"The crowned skull of House Manwoody, bone and gold on black." Pod sounded more confident with
every correct answer. "The Manwoodys of Kingsgrave."
"Three black spiders?"
"They're scorpions, ser. House Qorgyle of Sandstone, three scorpions black on red."
"Red and yellow, a jagged line between."
"The flames of Hellholt. House Uller."
Tyrion was impressed. The boy's not half stupid, once he gets his tongue untied. "Go on, Pod," he urged.
"If you get them all, I'll make you a gift."
"A pie with red and black slices," said Bronn. "There's a gold hand in the middle."
"House Allyrion of Godsgrace."
"A red chicken eating a snake, looks like."
"The Gargalens of Salt Shore. A cockatrice. Ser. Pardon. Not a chicken. Red, with a black snake in its
beak."
"Very good!" exclaimed Tyrion. "One more, lad."
Bronn scanned the ranks of the approaching Domishmen. "The last's a golden feather on green checks."
"A golden quill, ser. Jordayne of the Tor."
Tyrion laughed. "Nine, and well done. I could not have named them all myself." That was a lie, but it
would give the boy some pride, and that he badly needed.
Martell brings some formidable companions, it would seem. Not one of the houses Pod had named was
small or insignificant. Nine of the greatest lords of Dorne were coming up the kingsroad, them or their
heirs, and somehow Tyrion did not think they had come all this way just to see the dancing bear. There
was a message here. And not one I like. He wondered if it had been a mistake to ship Myrcella down to
Sunspear.
"My lord," Pod said, a little timidly, "there's no litter."
Tyrion turned his head sharply. The boy was right.
"Doran Martell always travels in a litter," the boy said. "A carved litter with silk hangings, and suns on the
drapes."


Tyrion had heard the same talk. Prince Doran was past fifty, and gouty. He may have wanted to make
faster time, he told himself. He may have feared his litter would make too tempting a target for brigands,
or that it would prove too cumbersome in the high passes of the Boneway. Perhaps his gout is better.
So why did he have such a bad feeling about this?
This waiting was intolerable. "Banners forward," he snapped. "We'll meet them." He kicked his horse.
Bronn and Pod followed, one to either side. When the Dornishmen saw them coming, they spurred their
own mounts, banners rippling as they rode. From their ornate saddles were slung the round metal shields
they favored, and many carried bundles of short throwing spears, or the double-curved Dornish bows
they used so well from horseback.
There were three sorts of Dornishmen, the first King Daeron had observed. There were the salty
Dornishmen who lived along the coasts, the sandy Dornishmen of the deserts and long river valleys, and
the stony Dornishmen who made their fastnesses in the passes and heights of the Red Mountains. The
salty Domishmen had the most Rhoynish blood, the stony Dornishmen the least.
All three sorts seemed well represented in Doran's retinue. The salty Dornishmen were lithe and dark,
with smooth olive skin and long black hair streaming in the wind. The sandy Dornishmen were even
darker, their faces burned brown by the hot Dornish sun. They wound long bright scarfs around their
helms to ward off sunstroke. The stony Dornishmen were biggest and fairest, sons of the Andals and the
First Men, brownhaired or blond, with faces that freckled or burned in the sun instead of browning.
The lords wore silk and satin robes with jeweled belts and flowing sleeves. Their armor was heavily
enameled and inlaid with burnished
copper, shining silver, and soft red gold. They came astride red horses and golden ones and a few as
pale as snow, all slim and swift, with long necks and narrow beautiful heads. The fabled sand steeds of
Dome were smaller than proper warhorses and could not bear such weight of armor, but it was said that
they could run for a day and night and another day, and never tire.
The Domish leader forked a stallion black as sin with a mane and tail the color of fire. He sat his saddle
as if he'd been born there, tall, slim, graceful. A cloak of pale red silk fluttered from his shoulders, and his
shirt was armored with overlapping rows of copper disks that glittered like a thousand bright new pennies
as he rode. His high gilded helm displayed a copper sun on its brow, and the round shield slung behind
him bore the sun-and-spear of House Martell on its polished metal surface.
A Martell sun, but ten years too young, Tyrion thought as he reined up, too fit as well, and far too fierce.
He knew what he must deal with by then. How many Dornishmen does it take to start a war? he asked
himself. Only one. Yet he had no choice but to smile. "Well met, my lords. We had word of your
approach, and His Grace King Joffrey bid me ride out to welcome you in his name. My lord father the
King's Hand sends his greetings as well." He feigned an amiable confusion. "Which of you is Prince
Doran?"
"My brother's health requires he remain at Sunspear." The princeling removed his helm. Beneath, his face
was lined and saturnine, with thin arched brows above large eyes as black and shiny as pools of coal oil.
Only a few streaks of silver marred the lustrous black hair that receded from his brow in a widow's peak
as sharply pointed as his nose. A salty Dornishmen for certain. "Prince Doran has sent me to join King
Joffrey's council in his stead, as it please His Grace."
"His Grace will be most honored to have the counsel of a warrior as renowned as Prince Oberyn of


Dome," said Tyrion, thinking, This will mean blood in the gutters. "And your noble companions are most
welcome as well."
"Permit me to acquaint you with them, my lord of Lannister. Ser Deziel Dalt, of Lemonwood. Lord
Tremond Gargalen. Lord Harmen Uller and his brother Ser Ulwyck. Ser Ryon Allyrion and his natural
son Ser Daemon Sand, the Bastard of Godsgrace. Lord Dagos Manwoody, his brother Ser Myles, his
sons Mors and Dickon. Ser Arron Qorgyle. And never let it be thought that I would neglect the ladies.
Myria Jordayne, heir to the Tor. Lady Larra Blackmont, her daughter Jynessa, her son Perros." He
raised a slender hand toward a black-haired woman to the rear, beckoning her forward. "And this is
Ellaria Sand, mine own paramour."
Tyrion swallowed a groan. His paramour, and bastard-born, Cersei
will pitch a holy fit if he wants her at the wedding. If she consigned the woman to some dark comer
below the salt, his sister would risk the Red Viper's wrath. Seat her beside him at the high table, and
every other lady on the dais was like to take offense. Did Prince Doran mean to provoke a quarrel?
Prince Oberyn wheeled his horse about to face his fellow Domishmen. "Ellaria, lords and ladies, sers,
see how well King Joffrey loves us. His Grace has been so kind as to send his own Uncle Imp to bring us
to his court. "
Bronn snorted back laughter, and Tyrion perforce must feign amusement as well. "Not alone, my lords.
That would be too enormous a task for a little man like me." His own party had come up on them, so it
was his turn to name the names. "Let me present Ser Flement Brax, heir to Homvale. Lord Gyles of
Rosby. Ser Addam Marbrand, Lord Commander of the City Watch. jalabhar Xho, Prince of the Red
Flower Vale. Ser Harys Swyft, my uncle Kevan's good father by marriage. Ser Merlon Crakehall. Ser
Philip Foote and Ser Bronn of the Blackwater, two heroes of our recent battle against the rebel Stannis
Baratheon. And mine own squire, young Podrick of House Payne." The names had a nice ringing sound
as Tyrion reeled them off, but the bearers were nowise near as distinguished nor formidable a company
as those who accompanied Prince Oberyn, as both of them knew full well.
"My lord of Lannister," said Lady Blackmont, "we have come a long dusty way, and rest and
refreshment would be most welcome. Might we continue on to the city?"
"At once, my lady." Tyrion turned his horse's head, and called to Ser Addam Marbrand. The mounted
gold cloaks who formed the greatest part of his honor guard turned their horses crisply at Ser Addam's
command, and the column set off for the river and King's Landing beyond.
Oberyn Nymeros Martell, Tyrion muttered under his breath as he fell in beside the man. The Red Viper
of Dorne. And what in the seven hells am I supposed to do with him?
He knew the man only by reputation, to be sure ... but the reputation was fearsome. When he was no
more than sixteen, Prince Oberyn had been found abed with the paramour of old Lord Yronwood, a
huge man of fierce repute and short temper. A duel ensued, though in view of the prince's youth and high
birth, it was only to first blood. Both men took cuts, and honor was satisfied. Yet Prince Oberyn soon
recovered, while Lord Yronwood's wounds festered and killed him. Afterward men whispered that
Oberyn had fought with a poisoned sword, and ever thereafter friends and foes alike called him the Red
Viper.
That was many years ago, to be sure. The boy of sixteen was a man past forty now, and his legend had
grown a deal darker. He had traveled


in the Free Cities, leaming the poisoner's trade and perhaps arts darker still, if rumors could be believed.
He had studied at the Citadel, going so far as to forge six links of a maester's chain before he grew
bored. He had soldiered in the Disputed Lands across the narrow sea, riding with the Second Sons for a
time before forming his own company. His tourneys, his battles, his duels, his horses, his carnality ... it
was said that he bedded men and women both, and had begotten bastard girls all over Dome. The sand
snakes, men called his daughters. So far as Tyrion had heard, Prince Oberyn had never fathered a son.
And of course, he had crippled the heir to Highgarden.
There is no man in the Seven Kingdoms who will be less welcome at a 7)7rell wedding, thought Tyrion.
To send Prince Oberyn to King's Landing while the city still hosted Lord Mace Tyrell, two of his sons,
and thousands of their men-at-arms was a provocation as dangerous as Prince Oberyn himself. A wrong
word, an ill-timed jest, a look, that's all it will take, and our noble allies will be at one another's throats.
"We have met before," the Domish prince said lightly to Tyrion as they rode side by side along the
kingsroad, past ashen fields and the skeletons of trees. "I would not expect you to remember, though.
You were even smaller than you are now."
There was a mocking edge to his voice that Tyrion misliked, but he was not about to let the Dornishman
provoke him. "When was this, my lord?" he asked in tones of polite interest.
"Oh, many and many a year ago, when my mother ruled in Dome and your lord father was Hand to a
different king."
Not so different as you might think, reflected Tyrion.
"It was when I visited Casterly Rock with my mother, her consort, and my sister Elia. I was, oh,
fourteen, fifteen, thereabouts, Elia a year older. Your brother and sister were eight or nine, as I recall,
and you had just been bom."
A queer time to come visiting. His mother had died giving him birth, so the Martells would have found
the Rock deep in mouming. His father especially. Lord Tywin seldom spoke of his wife, but Tyrion had
heard his uncles talk of the love between them. In those days, his father had been Aerys's Hand, and
many people said that Lord Tywin Lannister ruled the Seven Kingdoms, but Lady Joanna ruled Lord
Tywin. "He was not the same man after she died, imp," his Uncle Gery told him once. "The best part of
him died with her." Gerion had been the youngest of Lord Tytos Lannister's four sons, and the uncle
Tyrion liked best.
But he was gone now, lost beyond the seas, and Tyrion himself had put Lady Joanna in her grave. "Did
you find Casterly Rock to your liking, my lord?"
"Scarcely. Your father ignored us the whole time we were there, after
commanding Ser Kevan to see to our entertainment. The cell they gave me had a featherbed to sleep in
and Myrish carpets on the floor, but it was dark and windowless, much like a dungeon when you come
down to it, as I told Elia at the time. Your skies were too grey, your wines too sweet, your women too
chaste, your food too bland ... and you yourself were the greatest disappointment of all."
"I had just been born. What did you expect of me?"


"Enormity," the black-haired prince replied. "You were small, but far-famed. We were in Oldtown at
your birth, and all the city talked of was the monster that had been born to the King's Hand, and what
such an omen might foretell for the realm."
"Famine, plague, and war, no doubt." Tyrion gave a sour smile. "It's always famine, plague, and war.
Oh, and winter, and the long night that never ends."
"All that," said Prince Oberyn, "and your father's fall as well. Lord Tywin had made himself greater than
King Aerys, I heard one begging brother preach, but only a god is meant to stand above a king. You
were his curse, a punishment sent by the gods to teach him that he was no better than any other man."
"I try, but he refuses to learn." Tyrion gave a sigh. "But do go on, I pray you. I love a good tale."
"And well you might, since you were said to have one, a stiff curly tail like a swine's. Your head was
monstrous huge, we heard, half again the size of your body, and you had been born with thick black hair
and a beard besides, an evil eye, and lion's claws. Your teeth were so long you could not close your
mouth, and between your legs were a girl's privates as well as a boy's."
"Life would be much simpler if men could fuck themselves, don't you agree? And I can think of a few
times when claws and teeth might have proved useful. Even so, I begin to see the nature of your
complaint."
Brorm gave out with a chuckle, but Oberyn only smiled. "We might never have seen you at all but for
your sweet sister. You were never seen at table or hall, though sometimes at night we could hear a baby
howling down in the depths of the Rock. You did have a monstrous great voice, I must grant you that.
You would wail for hours, and nothing would quiet you but a woman's teat."
"Still true, as it happens."
This time Prince Oberyn did laugh. "A taste we share. Lord Gargalen once told me he hoped to die with
a sword in his hand, to which I replied that I would sooner go with a breast in mine."
Tyrion had to grin. "You were speaking of my sister?"
"Cersei promised Elia to show you to us. The day before we were to sail, whilst my mother and your
father were closeted together, she and
Jaime took us down to your nursery. Your wet nurse tried to send us off, but your sister was having
none of that. 'He's mine/ she said, 'and you're just a milk cow, you can't tell me what to do. Be quiet or
I'll have my father cut your tongue out. A cow doesn't need a tongue, only udders."'
"Her Grace learned charm at an early age," said Tyrion, amused by the notion of his sister claiming him
as hers. She's never been in any rush to claim me since, the gods know.
"Cersei even undid your swaddling clothes to give us a better look," the Dornish prince continued. "You
did have one evil eye, and some black fuzz on your scalp. Perhaps your head was larger than most ... but
there was no tail, no beard, neither teeth nor claws, and nothing between your legs but a tiny pink cock.
After all the wonderful whispers, Lord Tywin's Doom turned out to be just a hideous red infant with
stunted legs. Elia even made the noise that young girls make at the sight of infants, I'm sure you've heard
it. The same noise they make over cute kittens and playful puppies. I believe she wanted to nurse you
herself, ugly as you were. When I commented that you seemed a poor sort of monster, your sister said,


'He killed my mother/ and twisted your little cock so hard I thought she was like to pull it off. You
shrieked, but it was only when your brother Jaime said, 'Leave him be, you're hurting him/ that Cersei let
go of you. 'It doesn't matter/ she told us. 'Everyone says he's like to die soon. He shouldn't even have
lived this long."'
The sun was shining bright above them, and the day was pleasantly warm for autumn, but Tyrion
Lannister went cold all over when he heard that. My sweet sister. He scratched at the scar of his nose
and gave the Dornishman a taste of his "evil eye." Now why would he tell such a tale? Is he testing me, or
simply twisting my cock as Cersei did, so he can hear me scream? "Be sure and tell that story to my
father. It will delight him as much as it did me. The part about my tail, especially. I did have one, but he
had it lopped off."
Prince Oberyn had a chuckle. "You've grown more amusing since last we met."
"Yes, but I meant to grow taller."
"While we are speaking of amusement, I heard a curious tale from Lord Buckler's steward. He claimed
that you had put a tax on women's privy purses."
"It is a tax on whoring," said Tyrion, irritated all over again. And it was my bloody father's notion. "Only
a penny for each, ah ... act. The King's Hand felt it might help improve the morals of the city." And pay
for Joffrey's wedding besides. Needless to say, as master of coin, Tyrion had gotten all the blame for it.
Brorm said they were calling it the dwarf's penny inthestreets. "Spread your legs for the Halfman, now,"
they were shouting in the brothels and wine sinks, if the sellsword could be believed.
"I will make certain to keep my pouch full of pennies. Even a prince must pay his taxes."
"Why should you need to go whoring?" He glanced back to where Ellaria Sand rode among the other
women. "Did you tire of your paramour on the road?"
"Never. We share too much." Prince Oberyn shrugged. "We have never shared a beautiful blonde
woman, however, and Ellaria is curious. Do you know of such a creature?"
"I am a man wedded." Though not yet bedded. "I no longer frequent whores." Unless I want to see them
hanged.
Oberyn abruptly changed the subject. "It's said there are to be seventyseven dishes served at the king's
wedding feast."
"Are you hungry, my prince?"
"I have hungered for a long time. Though not for food. Pray tell me, when will the iustice be served?"
"Justice." Yes, that is why he's here, I should have seen that at once. "You were close to your sister?"
"As children Elia and I were inseparable, much like your own brother and sister."
Gods, I hope not. "Wars and weddings have kept us well occupied, Prince Oberyn. I fear no one has
yet had the time to look into murders sixteen years stale, dreadful as they were. We shall, of course, just
as soon as we may. Any help that Dome might be able to provide to restore the king's peace would only
hasten the beginning of my lord father's inquiry - "


"Dwarf," said the Red Viper, in a tone grown markedly less cordial, "spare me your Lannister lies. Is it
sheep you take us for, or fools? My brother is not a bloodthirsty man, but neither has he been asleep for
sixteen years. Jon Arryn came to Sunspear the year after Robert took the throne, and you can be sure
that he was questioned closely. Him, and a hundred more. I did not come for some mummer's show of
an inquiry. I came for justice for Elia and her children, and I will have it. Starting with this lummox Gregor
Clegane ... but not, I think, ending there. Before he dies, the Enormity That Rides will tell me whence
came his orders, please assure your lord father of that." He smiled. "An old septon once claimed I was
living proof of the goodness of the gods. Do you know why that is, Imp?"
"No," Tyrion admitted warily.
"Why, if the gods were cruel, they would have made me my mother's firstborn, and Doran her third. I
am a bloodthirsty man, you see. And it is me you must contend with now, not my patient, prudent, and
gouty brother."
Tyrion could see the sun shining on the Blackwater Rush half a mile ahead, and on the walls and towers
and hills of King's Landing beyond.
He glanced over his shoulder, at the glittering column following them up the kingsroad. "You speak like a
man with a great host at his back," he said, "yet all I see are three hundred. Do you spy that city there,
north of the river?"
"The midden heap you call King's Landing?"
"That's the very one."
"Not only do I see it, I believe I smell it now."
"Then take a good sniff, my lord. Fill up your nose. Half a million people stink more than three hundred,
you'll find. Do you smell the gold cloaks? There are near five thousand of them. My father's own swom
swords must account for another twenty thousand. And then there are the roses. Roses smell so sweet,
don't they? Especially when there are so many of them. Fifty, sixty, seventy thousand roses, in the city or
camped outside it, I can't really say how many are left, but there's more than I care to count, anyway."
Martell gave a shrug. "In Dome of old before we married Dacron, it was said that all flowers bow before
the sun. Should the roses seek to hinder me I'll gladly trample them underfoot."
"As you trampled Willas Tyrell?"
The Domishman did not react as expected. "I had a letter from Willas not half a year past. We share an
interest in fine horseflesh. He has never bome me any ill will for what happened in the lists. I struck his
breastplate clean, but his foot caught in a stirrup as he fell and his horse came down on top of him. I sent
a maester to him afterward, but it was all he could do to save the boy's leg. The knee was far past
mending. If any were to blame, it was his fool of a father. Willas Tyrell was green as his surcoat and had
no business riding in such company. The Fat Flower thrust him into tourneys at too tender an age, just as
he did with the other two. He wanted another Leo Longthom, and made himself a cripple."
"There are those who say Ser Loras is better than Leo Longthom. ever was," said Tyrion.
"Renly's little rose? I doubt that."


"Doubt it all you wish," said Tyrion, "but Ser Loras has defeated many good knights, including my
brother Jaime."
"By defeated, you mean unhorsed, in tourney. Tell me who he's slain in battle if you mean to frighten
me."
"Ser Robar Royce and Ser Emmon Cuy, for two. And men say he performed prodigious feats of valor
on the Blackwater, fighting beside Lord Renly's ghost."
"So these same men who saw the prodigious feats saw the ghost as well, yes?" The Domishman laughed
lightly.
Tyrion gave him a long look. "Chataya's on the Street of Silk has several girls who might suit your needs.
Dancy has hair the color of
honey. Marei's is pale white-gold. I would advise you to keep one or the other by your side at all times,
my lord."
"At all times?" Prince Oberyn lifted a thin black eyebrow. "And why is that, my good imp?"
"You want to die with a breast in hand, you said." Tyrion cantered on ahead to where the ferry barges
waited on the south bank of the Blackwater. He had suffered all he meant to suffer of what passed for
Dornish wit. Father should have sent Joffrey after all. He could have asked Prince Oberyn if he knew
how a Dornishman differed from a cowflop. That made him grin despite himself. He would have to make
a point of being on hand when the Red Viper was presented to the king.
Chapter 39
Arya
The man on the roof was the first to die. He was crouched down by the chimney two hundred yards
away, no more than a vague shadow in the predawn gloom, but as the sky began to lighten he stirred,
stretched, and stood. Anguy's arrow took him in the chest. He tumbled bonelessly down the steep slate
pitch, and fell in front of the septry door.
The Mummers had posted two guards there, but their torch left them night blind, and the outlaws had
crept in close. Kyle and Notch let fly together. One man went down with an arrow through his throat, the
other through his belly. The second man dropped the torch, and the flames licked up at him. He
screamed as his clothes took fire, and that was the end of stealth. Thoros gave a shout, and the outlaws
attacked in earnest.
Arya watched from atop her horse, on the crest of the wooded ridge that overlooked the septry, mill,
brewhouse, and stables and the desolation of weeds, burnt trees, and mud that surrounded them. The
trees were mostly bare now, and the few withered brown leaves that still clung to the branches did little
to obstruct her view. Lord Beric had left Beardless Dick and Mudge to guard them. Arya hated being left
behind like she was some stupid child, but at least Gendry had been kept back as well. She knew better


than to try and argue. This was battle, and in battle you had to obey.
The eastern horizon glowed gold and pink, and overhead a half moon peeked out through low scuttling
clouds. The wind blew cold, and Arya could hear the rush of water and the creak of the mill's great
wooden
waterwheel. There was a smell of rain in the dawn air, but no drops were falling yet. Flaming arrows
flew through the morning mists, trailing pale ribbons of fire, and thudded into the wooden walls of the
septry. A few smashed through shuttered windows, and soon enough thin tendrils of smoke were rising
between the broken shutters.
Two Mummers came bursting from the septry side by side, axes in their hands. Anguy and the other
archers were waiting. One axeman died at once. The other managed to duck, so the shaft ripped through
his shoulder. He staggered on, till two more arrows found him, so quickly it was hard to say which had
struck first. The long shafts punched through his breastplate as if it had been made of silk instead of steel.
He fell heavily. Anguy had arrows tipped with bodkins as well as broadheads. A bodkin could pierce
even heavy plate. I'm going to learn to shoot a bow, Arya thought. She loved sword fighting, but she
could see how arrows were good too.
Flames were creeping up the west wall of the septry, and thick smoke poured through a broken
window. A Myrish crossbowman poked his head out a different window, got off a bolt, and ducked
down to rewind. She could hear fighting from the stables as well, shouts well mingled with the screams of
horses and the clang of steel. Kill them all, she thought fiercely. She bit her lip so hard she tasted blood.
Kill every single one.
The crossbowman appeared again, but no sooner had he loosed than three arrows hissed past his head.
One rattled off his helm. He vanished, bow and all. Arya could see flames in several of the second-story
windows. Between the smoke and the morning mists, the air was a haze of blowing black and white.
Anguy and the other bowmen were creeping closer, the better to find targets.
Then the septry erupted, the Mummers boiling out like angry ants. Two ibbenese rushed through the
door with shaggy brown shields held high before them, and behind them came a Dothraki with a great
curved arakh and bells in his braid, and behind him three Volantene sellswords covered with fierce
tattoos. Others were climbing out windows and leaping to the ground. Arya saw a man take an arrow
through the chest with one leg across a windowsill, and heard his scream as he fell. The smoke was
thickening. Quarrels and arrows sped back and forth. Watty fell with a grunt, his bow slipping from his
hand. Kyle was trying to nock another shaft to his string when a man in black mail flung a spear through
his belly. She heard Lord Beric shout. From out of the ditches and trees the rest of his band came
pouring, steel in hand. Arya saw Lem's bright yellow cloak flapping behind him as he rode down the man
who'd killed Kyle. Thoros and Lord Beric were everywhere, their swords swirling fire. The red priest
hacked at a hide shield until it flew to pieces, while his horse kicked the man in the face. A Dothraki
screamed and charged the
lightning lord, and the flaming sword leapt out to meet his arakh. The blades kissed and spun and kissed
again. Then the Dothraki's hair was ablaze, and a moment later he was dead. She spied Ned too, fighting
at the lightning lord's side. It's not fair, he's only a little older than me, they should have let me fight.
The battle did not last very long. The Brave Companions still on their feet soon died, or threw down
their swords. Two of the Dothraki managed to regain their horses and flee, but only because Lord Beric
let them go. "Let them carry the word back to Harrenhal," he said, with flaming sword in hand. "It will
give the Leech Lord and his goat a few more sleepless nights."


Jack-Be-Lucky, Harwin, and Merrit o' Moontown braved the burning septry to search for captives.
They emerged from the smoke and flames a few moments later with eight brown brothers, one so weak
that Merrit had to carry him across a shoulder. There was a septon with them as well, round-shouldered
and balding, but he wore black chainmail over his grey robes. "Found him hiding under the cellar steps,"
said Jack, coughing.
Thoros smiled to see him. "You are Utt."
"Septon Utt. A man of god."
"What god would want the likes o' you?" growled Lem.
"I have sinned," the septon wailed. "I know, I know. Forgive me, Father. Oh, grievously have I sinned."
Arya remembered Septon Utt from her time at Harrenhal. Shagwell the Fool said he always wept and
prayed for forgiveness after he'd killed his latest boy. Sometimes he even made the other Mummers
scourge him. They all thought that was very funny.
Lord Beric slammed his sword into its scabbard, quenching the flames. "Give the dying the gift of mercy
and bind the others hand and foot for trial," he commanded, and it was done.
The trials went swiftly. Various of the outlaws came forward to tell of things the Brave Companions had
done; towns and villages sacked, crops burned, women raped and murdered, men maimed and tortured.
A few spoke of the boys that Septon Utt had carried off. The septon wept and prayed through it all. "I
am a weak reed," he told Lord Beric. "I pray to the Warrior for strength, but the gods made me weak.
Have mercy on my weakness. The boys, the sweet boys ... I never mean to hurt them..."
Septon Utt soon dangled beneath a tall elm, swinging slowly by the neck, as naked as his name day. The
other Brave Companions followed one by one. A few fought, kicking and struggling as the noose was
tightened round their throats. One of the crossbowmen kept shouting, "I soldier, I soldier," in a thick
Myrish accent. Another offered to lead his
captors to gold; a third told them what a good outlaw he would make. Each was stripped and bound
and hanged in turn. Tom Sevenstrings played a dirge for them on his woodharp, and Thoros implored the
Lord of Light to roast their souls until the end of time.
A mummer tree, Arya thought as she watched them dangle, their pale skins painted a sullen red by the
flames of the burning septry. Already the crows were coming, appearing out of nowhere. She heard them
croaking and cackling at one another, and wondered what they were saying. Arya had not feared Septon
Utt as much as she did Rorge and Biter and some of the others still at Harrenhal, but she was glad that he
was dead all the same. They should have hanged the Hound too, or chopped his head off. Instead, to her
disgust, the outlaws had treated Sandor Clegane's burned arm, restored his sword and horse and armor,
and set him free a few miles from the hollow hill. All they'd taken was his gold.
The septry soon collapsed in a roar of smoke and flame, its walls no longer able to support the weight of
its heavy slate roof. The eight brown brothers watched with resignation. They were all that remained,
explained the eldest, who wore a small iron hammer on a thong about his neck to signify his devotion to
the Smith. "Before the war we were four-and-forty, and this was a prosperous place. We had a dozen
milk cows and a bull, a hundred beehives, a vineyard and an apple arbor. But when the lions came
through they took all our wine and milk and honey, slaughtered the cows, and put our vineyard to the


torch. After that ... I have lost count of our visitors. This false septon was only the latest. There was one
monster ... we gave him all our silver, but he was certain we were hiding gold, so his men killed us one by
one to make Elder Brother talk."
"How did the eight of you survive?" asked Anguy the Archer.
"I am ashamed," the old man said. "It was me. When it came my turn to die, I told them where our gold
was hidden."
"Brother," said Thoros of Myr, "the only shame was not telling them at once."
The outlaws sheltered that night in the brewhouse beside the little river. Their hosts had a cache of food
hidden beneath the floor of the stables, so they shared a simple supper; oaten bread, onions, and a
watery cabbage soup tasting faintly of garlic. Arya found a slice of carrot floating in her bowl, and
counted herself lucky. The brothers never asked the outlaws for names. They know, Arya thought. How
could they not? Lord Beric wore the lightning bolt on breastplate, shield, and cloak, and Thoros his red
robes, or what remained of them. One brother, a young novice, was bold enough to tell the red priest not
to pray to his false god so long as he was under their roof. "Bugger that," said Lem Lemoncloak. "He's
our god too, and you owe us for your bloody lives. And what's false about
him? Might be your Smith can mend a broken sword, but can he heal a broken man?"
"Enough, Lem," Lord Beric commanded. "Beneath their roof we will honor their rules."
"The sun will not cease to shine if we miss a prayer or two," Thoros agreed mildly. "I am one who would
know."
Lord Beric himself did not eat. Arya had never seen him eat, though from time to time he took a cup of
wine. He did not seem to sleep, either. His good eye would often close, as if from weariness, but when
you spoke to him it would flick open again at once. The Marcher lord was still clad in his ratty black
cloak and dented breastplate with its chipped enamel lightning. He even slept in that breastplate. The dull
black steel hid the terrible wound the Hound had given him, the same way his thick woolen scarf
concealed the dark ring about his throat. But nothing hid his broken head, all caved in at the temple, or
the raw red pit that was his missing eye, or the shape of the skull beneath his face.
Arya looked at him warily, remembering all the tales told of him in Harrenhal. Lord Beric seemed to
sense her fear. He turned his head, and beckoned her closer. "Do I frighten you, child?"
"No." She chewed her lip. "Only ... well ... I thought the Hound had killed you, but . . . "
"A wound," said Lem Lemoncloak. "A grievous wound, aye, but Thoros healed it. There's never been
no better healer."
Lord Beric gazed at Lem with a queer look in his good eye and no look at all in the other, only scars and
dried blood. "No better healer," he agreed wearily. "Lem, past time to change the watch, I'd think. See to
it, if you'd be so good."
"Aye, m'lord." Lem's big yellow cloak swirled behind him as he strode out into the windy night.
"Even brave men blind themselves sometimes, when they are afraid to see," Lord Beric said when Lem
was gone. "Thoros, how many times have you brought me back now?"


The red priest bowed his head. "It is R'hllor who brings you back, my lord. The Lord of Light. I am only
his instrument."
"How many times?" Lord Beric insisted.
"Six," Thoros said reluctantly. "And each time is harder. You have grown reckless, my lord. Is death so
very sweet?"
"Sweet? No, my friend. Not sweet."
"Then do not court it so. Lord Tywin leads from the rear. Lord Stannis as well. You would be wise to
do the same. A seventh death might mean the end of both of us."
Lord Beric touched the spot above his left ear where his temple was caved in. "Here is where Ser
Burton Crakehall broke helm and head
with a blow of his mace." He unwound his scarf, exposing the black bruise that encircled his neck. "Here
the mark the manticore made at Rushing Falls. He seized a poor beekeeper and his wife, thinking they
were mine, and let it be known far and wide that he would hang them both unless I gave myself up to
him. When I did he hanged them anyway, and me on the gibbet between them." He lifted a finger to the
raw red pit of his eye. "Here is where the Mountain thrust his dirk through my visor." A weary smile
brushed his lips. "That's thrice I have died at the hands of House Clegane. You would think that I might
have learned..."
It was a jest, Arya knew, but Thoros did not laugh. He put a hand on Lord Beric's shoulder. "Best not
to dwell on it."
"Can I dwell on what I scarce remember? I held a castle on the Marches once, and there was a woman
I was pledged to marry, but I could not find that castle today, nor tell you the color of that woman's hair.
Who knighted me, old friend? What were my favorite foods? It all fades. Sometimes I think I was born
on the bloody grass in that grove of ash, with the taste of fire in my mouth and a hole in my chest. Are
you my mother, Thoros?"
Arya stared at the Myrish priest, all shaggy hair and pink rags and bits of old armor. Grey stubble
covered his cheeks and the sagging skin beneath his chin. He did not look much like the wizards in Old
Nan's stories, but even so ...
"Could you bring back a man without a head?" Arya asked. "Just the once, not six times. Could you?"
"I have no magic, child. Only prayers. That first time, his lordship had a hole right through him and blood
in his mouth, I knew there was no hope. So when his poor torn chest stopped moving, I gave him the
good god's own kiss to send him on his way. I filled my mouth with fire and breathed the flames inside
him, down his throat to lungs and heart and soul. The last kiss it is called, and many a time I saw the old
priests bestow it on the Lord's servants as they died. I had given it a time or two myself, as all priests
must. But never before had I felt a dead man shudder as the fire filled him, nor seen his eyes come open.
It was not me who raised him, my lady. It was the Lord. R'hllor is not done with him yet. Life is warmth,
and warmth is fire, and fire is God's and God's alone."
Arya felt tears well in her eyes. Thoros used a lot of words, but all they meant was no, that much she
understood.


"Your father was a good man," Lord Beric said. "Harwin has told me much of him. For his sake, I would
gladly forgo your ransom, but we need the gold too desperately."
She chewed her lip. That's true, I guess. He had given the Hound's
gold to Greenbeard and the Huntsman to buy provisions south of the Mander, she knew. "The last
harvest burned, this one is drowning, and winter will soon be on us," she had heard him say when he sent
them off. "The smallfolk need grain and seed, and we need blades and horses. Too many of my men ride
rounseys, drays, and mules against foes mounted on coursers and destriers."
Arya didn't know how much Robb would pay for her, though. He was a king now, not the boy she'd left
at Winterfell with snow melting in his hair. And if he knew the things she'd done, the stableboy and the
guard at Harrenhal and all "What if my brother doesn't want to ransom me?"
"Why would you think that?" asked Lord Beric.
"Well," Arya said, "my hair's messy and my nails are dirty and my feet are all hard." Robb wouldn't care
about that, probably, but her mother would. Lady Catelyn always wanted her to be like Sansa, to sing
and dance and sew and mind her courtesies. just thinking of it made Arya try to comb her hair with her
fingers, but it was all tangles and mats, and all she did was tear some out. "I ruined that gown that Lady
Smallwood gave me, and I don't sew so good." She chewed her lip. "I don't sew very well, I mean.
Septa Mordane used to say I had a blacksmith's hands."
Gendry hooted. "Those soft little things?" he called out. "You couldn't even hold a hammer."
"I could if I wanted!" she snapped at him.
Thoros chuckled. "Your brother will pay, child. Have no fear on that count."
"Yes, but what if he won't?" she insisted.
Lord Beric sighed. "Then I will send you to Lady Smallwood for a time, or perhaps to mine own castle
of Blackhaven. But that will not be necessary, I'm certain. I do not have the power to give you back your
father, no more than Thoros does, but I can at least see that you are returned safely to your mother's
arms."
"Do you swear?" she asked him. Yoren had promised to take her home too, only he'd gotten killed
instead.
"On my honor as a knight," the lightning lord said solemnly.
It was raining when Lem returned to the brewhouse, muttering curses as water ran off his yellow cloak
to puddle on the floor. Anguy and Jack-Be-Lucky sat by the door rolling dice, but no matter which game
they played one-eyed Jack had no luck at all. Tom Sevenstrings replaced a string on his woodharp, and
sang "The Mother's Tears," "When Willum's Wife Was Wet," "Lord Harte Rode Out on a Rainy Day,"
and then "The Rains of Castamere."
And who are you, the proud lord said, that I must bow so low?
Only a cat of a different coat, that's all the truth I know


In a coat of gold or a coat of red, a lion still has claws,
And mine are long and sharp, my lord, as long and sharp as yours.
And so he spoke, and so he spoke, that lord of Castamere,
But now the rains weep o'er his hall, with no one there to hear.
Yes now the rains weep o'er his hall, and not a soul to hear.
Finally Tom ran out of rain songs and put away his harp. Then there was only the sound of the rain itself
beating down on the slate roof of the brewhouse. The dice game ended, and Arya stood on one leg and
then the other listening to Merrit complain about his horse throwing a shoe.
"I could shoe him for you," said Gendry, all of a sudden. "I was only a 'prentice, but my master said my
hand was made to hold a hammer. I can shoe horses, close up rents in mail, and beat the dents from
plate. I bet I could make swords too."
"What are you saying, lad?" asked Harwin.
"I'll smith for you." Gendry went to one knee before Lord Beric. "If you'll have me, m'lord, I could be of
use. I've made tools and knives and once I made a helmet that wasn't so bad. One of the Mountain's men
stole it from me when we was taken."
Arya bit her lip. He means to leave me too.
"You would do better serving Lord Tully at Riverrun," said Lord Beric. "I cannot pay for your work."
"No one ever did. I want a forge, and food to eat, some place I can sleep. That's enough, m'lord."
"A smith can find a welcome most anywhere. A skilled armorer even more so. Why would you choose
to stay with us?"
Arya watched Gendry screw up his stupid face, thinking. "At the hollow hill, what you said about being
King Robert's men, and brothers, I liked that. I liked that you gave the Hound a trial. Lord Bolton just
hanged folk or took off their heads, and Lord Tywin and Ser Amory were the same. I'd sooner smith for
you."
"We got plenty of mail needs mending, m'lord," Jack reminded Lord Beric. "Most we took off the dead,
and there's holes where the death came through."
"You must be a lackwit, boy," said Lem. "We're outlaws. Lowbom scum, most of us, excepting his
lordship. Don't think it'll be like Tom's fool songs neither. You won't be stealing no kisses from a
princess, nor riding in no tourneys in stolen armor. You join us, you'll end with your neck in a noose, or
your head mounted up above some castle gate."
"It's no more than they'd do for you," said Gendry.
"Aye, that's so," said Jack-Be-Lucky cheerfully. "The crows await us all * M'lord, the boy seems brave
enough, and we do have need of what he brings us. Take him, says Jack."


"And quick," suggested Harwin, chuckling, "before the fever passes and he comes back to his senses."
A wan smile crossed Lord Beric's lips. "Thoros, my sword."
This time the lightning lord did not set the blade afire, but merely laid it light on Gendry's shoulder.
"Gendry, do you swear before the eyes of gods and men to defend those who cannot defend themselves,
to protect all women and children, to obey your captains, your liege lord, and your king, to fight bravely
when needed and do such other tasks as are laid upon you, however hard or humble or dangerous they
may be?"
"I do, m'lord."
The marcher lord moved the sword from the right shoulder to the left, and said, "Arise Ser Gendry,
knight of the hollow hill, and be welcome to our brotherhood."
From the door came rough, rasping laughter.
The rain was running off him. His burned arm was wrapped in leaves and linen and bound tight against
his chest by a crude rope sling, but the older bums that marked his face glistened black and slick in the
glow of their little fire. "Making more knights, Dondarrion?" the intruder said in a growl. "I ought to kill
you all over again for that."
Lord Beric faced him coolly. "I'd hoped we'd seen the last of you, Clegane. How did you come to find
us?"
"It wasn't hard. You made enough bloody smoke to be seen in Oldtown."
"What's become of the sentries I posted?"
Clegane's mouth twitched. "Those two blind men? Might be I killed them both. What would you do if I
had?"
Anguy strung his bow. Notch was doing the same. "Do you wish to die so very much, Sandor?" asked
Thoros. "You must be mad or drunk to follow us here."
"Drunk on rain? You didn't leave me enough gold to buy a cup of wine, you whoresons."
Anguy drew an arrow. "We're outlaws. Outlaws steal. It's in the songs, if you ask nice Tom may sing
you one. Be thankful we didn't kill you."
"Come try it, Archer. I'll take that quiver off you and shove those arrows up your freckly little arse."
Anguy raised his longbow, but Lord Beric lifted a hand before he could loose. "Why did you come here,
Clegane?"
"To get back what's mine."
"Your gold?"
"What else? It wasn't for the pleasure of looking at your face, Dondarrion, I'll tell you that. You're uglier


than me now. And a robber knight besides, it seems."
"I gave you a note for your gold," Lord Beric said calmly. "A promise to pay, when the war's done."
"I wiped my arse with your paper. I want the gold."
"We don't have it. I sent it south with Greenbeard and the Huntsman, to buy grain and seed across the
Mander."
"To feed all them whose crops you burned," said Gendry.
"Is that the tale, now?" Sandor Clegane laughed again. "As it happens, that's just what I meant to do with
it. Feed a bunch of ugly peasants and their poxy whelps."
"You're lying," said Gendry.
"The boy has a mouth on him, I see. Why believe them and not me? Couldn't be my face, could it?"
Clegane glanced at Arya. "You going to make her a knight too, Dondarrion? The first eight-year-old girl
knight?"
"I'm twelve," Arya lied loudly, "and I could be a knight if I wanted. I could have killed you too, only Lem
took my knife." Remembering that still made her angry.
"Complain to Lem, not me. Then tuck your tail between your legs and run. Do you know what dogs do
to wolves?"
"Next time I will kill you. I'll kill your brother too!"
"No." His dark eyes narrowed. "That you won't." He turned back to Lord Beric. "Say, make my horse a
knight. He never shits in the hall and doesn't kick more than most, he deserves to be knighted. Unless
you meant to steal him too."
"Best climb on that horse and go," warned Lem.
"I'll go with my gold. Your own god said I'm guiltless -
"The Lord of Light gave you back your life," declared Thoros of Myr. "He did not proclaim you Baelor
the Blessed come again." The red priest unsheathed his sword, and Arya saw that Jack and Merrit had
drawn as well. Lord Beric still held the blade he'd used to dub Gendry. Maybe this time they'll kill him.
The Hound's mouth gave another twitch. "You're no more than common thieves."
Lem glowered. "Your lion friends ride into some village, take all the food and every coin they find, and
call it foraging. The wolves as well,
so why not us? No one robbed you, dog. You just been good and foraged." Sandor Clegane looked at
their faces, every one, as if he were trying to commit them all to memory. Then he walked back out into
the darkness and the pouring rain from whence he'd come, with never another word. The outlaws waited,
wondering ...
"I best go see what he did to our sentries." Harwin took a wary look out the door before he left, to


make certain the Hound was not lurking just outside.
"How'd that bloody bastard get all that gold anyhow?" Lem Lemoncloak said, to break the tension.
Anguy shrugged. "He won the Hand's tourney. In King's Landing." The bowman grinned. "I won a fair
fortune myself, but then I met Dancy, Jayde, and Alayaya. They taught me what roast swan tastes like,
and how to bathe in Arbor wine."
"Pissed it all away, did you?" laughed Harwin.
"Not all. I bought these boots, and this excellent dagger."
"You ought t'have bought some land and made one o' them roast swan girls an honest woman," said
Jack-Be-Lucky. "Raised yourself a crop o' turnips and a crop o' sons."
"Warrior defend me! What a waste that would have been, to turn my gold to turnips."
"I like turnips," said Jack, aggrieved. "I could do with some mashed turnips right now."
Thoros of Myr paid no heed to the banter. "The Hound has lost more than a few bags of coin," he
mused. "He has lost his master and kennel as well. He cannot go back to the Lannisters, the Young Wolf
would never have him, nor would his brother be like to welcome him. That gold was all he had left, it
seems to me."
"Bloody hell," said Watty the Miller. "He'll come murder us in our sleep for sure, then."
"No." Lord Beric had sheathed his sword. "Sandor Clegane would kill us all gladly, but not in our sleep.
Anguy, on the morrow, take the rear with Beardless Dick. If you see Clegane still sniffing after us, kill his
horse."
"That's a good horse," Anguy protested.
"Aye," said Lem. "It's the bloody rider we should be killing. We could use that horse."
"I'm with Lem," Notch said. "Let me feather the dog a few times, discourage him some."
Lord Beric shook his head. "Clegane won his life beneath the hollow hill. I will not rob him of it."
"My lord is wise," Thoros told the others. "Brothers, a trial by battle is a holy thing. You heard me ask
R'hllor to take a hand, and you saw
his fiery finger snap Lord Beric's sword, just as he was about to make an end of it. The Lord of Light is
not yet done with Joffrey's Hound, it would seem."
Harwin soon returned to the brewhouse. "Puddingfoot was sound asleep, but unharmed."
"Wait till I get hold of him," said Lem. "I'll cut him a new bunghole. He could have gotten every one of us
killed."
No one rested very comfortably that night, knowing that Sandor Clegane was out there in the dark,
somewhere close. Arya curled up near the fire, warm and snug, yet sleep would not come. She took out


the coin that Jaqen H'ghar had given her and curled her fingers around it as she lay beneath her cloak. It
made her feel strong to hold it, remembering how she'd been the ghost in Harrenhal. She could kill with a
whisper then.
Jaqen was gone, though. He'd left her. Hot Pie left me too, and now Gendry is leaving. Lommy had
died, Yoren had died, Syrio Forel had died, even her father had died, and Jaqen had given her a stupid
iron penny and vanished. "Valar morghulis," she whispered softly, tightening her fist so the hard edges of
the coin dug into her palm. "Ser Gregor, Dunsen, Polliver, Raff the Sweetling. The Tickler and the
Hound. Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, King Joffrey, Queen Cersei." Arya tried to imagine how they would look
when they were dead, but it was hard to bring their faces to mind. The Hound she could see, and his
brother the Mountain, and she would never forget Joffrey's face, or his mother's ... but Raff and Dunsen
and Polliver were all fading, and even the Tickler, whose looks had been so commonplace.
Sleep took her at last, but in the black of night Arya woke again, tingling. The fire had burned down to
embers. Mudge stood by the door, and another guard was pacing outside. The rain had stopped, and
she could hear wolves howling. So close, she thought, and so many. They sounded as if they were all
around the stable, dozens of them, maybe hundreds. I hope they eat the Hound. She remembered what
he'd said, about wolves and dogs.
Come morning, Septon Utt still swung beneath the tree, but the brown brothers were out in the rain with
spades, digging shallow graves for the other dead. Lord Beric thanked them for the night's lodging and
the meal, and gave them a bag of silver stags to help rebuild. Harwin, Likely Luke, and Watty the Miller
went out scouting, but neither wolves nor hounds were found.
As Arya was cinching her saddle girth, Gendry came up to say that he was sorry. She put a foot in the
stirrup and swung up into her saddle, so she could look down on him instead of up. You could have
made swords at Riverrun for my brother, she thought, but what she said was, "If you
want to be some stupid outlaw knight and get hanged, why should I care? I'll be at Riverrun, ransomed,
with my brother."
There was no rain that day, thankfully, and for once they made good time.
Chapter 40
BRAN
The tower stood upon an island, its twin reflected on the still blue waters. When the wind blew, ripples
moved across the surface of the lake, chasing one another like boys at play. Oak trees grew thick along
the lakeshore, a dense stand of them with a litter of fallen acorns on the ground beneath. Beyond them
was the village, or what remained of it.
It was the first village they had seen since leaving the foothills. Meera had scouted ahead to make certain
there was no one lurking amongst the ruins. Sliding in and amongst oaks and apple trees with her net and
spear in hand, she startled three red deer and sent them bounding away through?the ?rush. Summer saw
the flash of motion and was after them at once. Bran watched the direwolf lope off, and for a moment
wanted nothing so much as to slip his skin and run with him, but Meera was waving for them to come


ahead. Reluctantly, he turned away from Summer and urged Hodor on, into the village. Jojen walked
with them.
The ground from here to the Wall was grasslands, Bran knew; fallow fields and low rolling hills, high
meadows and lowland bogs. It would be much easier going than the mountains behind, but so much open
space made Meera uneasy. "I feel naked," she confessed. "There's no place to hide."
"Who holds this land?" Jojen asked Bran.
"The Night's Watch," he answered. "This is the Gift. The New Gift, and north of that Brandon's Gift."
Maester Luwin had taught him the history. "Brandon the Builder gave all the land south of the Wall to the
black brothers, to a distance of twenty-five leagues. For their ... for their
sustenance and support." He was proud that he still remembered that part. "Some maesters say it was
some other Brandon, not the Builder, but it's still Brandon's Gift. Thousands of years later, Good Queen
Alysanne visited the Wall on her dragon Silverwing, and she thought the Night's Watch was so brave that
she had the Old King double the size of their lands, to fifty leagues. So that was the New Gift." He
waved a hand. "Here. All this."
No one had lived in the village for long years, Bran could see. All the houses were falling down. Even the
inn. It had never been much of an inn, to look at it, but now all that remained was a stone chimney and
two cracked walls, set amongst a dozen apple trees. One was growing up through the common room,
where a layer of wet brown leaves and rotting apples carpeted the floor. The air was thick with the smell
of them, a cloying cidery scent that was almost overwhelming. Meera stabbed a few apples with her frog
spear, trying to find some still good enough to eat, but they were all too brown and wormy.
It was a peaceful spot, still and tranquil and lovely to behold, but Bran thought there was something sad
about an empty inn, and Hodor seemed to feel it too. "Hodor? " he said in a confused sort of way.
"Hodor? Hodor? "
"This is good land." Jojen picked up a handful of dirt, rubbing it between his fingers. "A village, an inn, a
stout holdfast in the lake, all these apple trees ... but where are the people, Bran? Why would they leave
such a place?"
"They were afraid of the wildlings," said Bran. "Wildlings come over the Wall or through the mountains,
to raid and steal and carry off women. If they catch you, they make your skull into a cup to drink blood,
Old Nan used to say. The Night's Watch isn't so strong as it was in Brandon's day or Queen Alysanne's,
so more get through. The places nearest the Wall got raided so much the smallfolk moved south, into the
mountains or onto the Umber lands east of the kingsroad. The Greatjon's people get raided too, but not
so much as the people who used to live in the Gift."
Jojen Reed turned his head slowly, listening to music only he could hear. "We need to shelter here.
There's a storm coming. A bad one."
Bran looked up at the sky. It had been a beautiful crisp clear autumn day, sunny and almost warm, but
there were dark clouds off to the west now, that was true, and the wind seemed to be picking up.
"There's no roof on the inn and only the two walls," he pointed out. "We should go out to the holdfast."
"Hodor," said Hodor. Maybe he agreed.
"We have no boat, Bran." Meera poked through the leaves idly with her frog spear.


"There's a causeway. A stone causeway, hidden under the water. We
could walk out." They could, anyway; he would have to ride on Hodor's back, but at least he'd stay dry
that way.
The Reeds exchanged a look. "How do you know that?" asked Jojen. "Have you been here before, my
prince?"
"No. Old Nan told me. The holdfast has a golden crown, see?" He pointed across the lake. You could
see patches of flaking gold paint up around the crenellations. "Queen Alysanne slept there, so they
painted the merlons gold in her honor."
"A causeway?" Joien studied the lake. "You are certain?"
"Certain," said Bran.
Meera found the foot of it easily enough, once she knew to look; a stone pathway three feet wide,
leading right out into the lake. She took them out step by careful step, probing ahead with her frog spear.
They could see where the path emerged again, climbing from the water onto the island and turning into a
short flight of stone steps that led to the holdfast door.
Path, steps, and door were in a straight line, which made you think the causeway ran straight, but that
wasn't so. Under the lake it zigged and zagged, going a third of a way around the island before jagging
back. The turns were treacherous, and the long path meant that anyone approaching would be exposed
to arrow fire from the tower for a long time. The hidden stones were slimy and slippery too; twice Hodor
almost lost his footing and shouted "HODOR!" in alarm before regaining his balance. The second time
scared Bran badly. If Hodor fell into the lake with him in his basket, he could well drown, especially if the
huge stableboy panicked and forgot that Bran was there, the way he did sometimes. Maybe we should
have stayed at the inn, under the apple tree, he thought, but by then it was too late.
Thankfully there was no third time, and the water never got up past Hodor's waist, though the Reeds
were in it up to their chests. And before long they were on the island, climbing the steps to the holdfast.
The door was still stout, though its heavy oak planks had warped over the years and it could no longer
be closed completely. Meera shoved it open all the way, the rusted iron hinges screaming. The lintel was
low. "Duck down, Hodor," Bran said, and he did, but not enough to keep Bran from hitting his head.
"That hurt," he complained.
"Hodor," said Hodor, straightening.
They found themselves in a gloomy strongroom, barely large enough to hold the four of them. Steps built
into the inner wall of the tower curved away upward to their left, downward to their right, behind iron
grates. Bran looked up and saw another grate just above his head. A murder hole. He was glad there
was no one up there now to pour boiling oil down on them.
The grates were locked, but the iron bars were red with rust. Hodor grabbed hold of the lefthand door
and gave it a pull, grunting with effort. Nothing happened. He tried pushing with no more success. He
shook the bars, kicked, shoved against them and rattled them and punched the hinges with a huge hand
until the air was filled with flakes of rust, but the iron door would not budge. The one down to the
undervault was no more accommodating. "No way in," said Meera, shrugging.


The murder hole was just above Bran's head, as he sat in his basket on Hodor's back. He reached up
and grabbed the bars to give them a try. When he pulled down the grating came out of the ceiling in a
cascade of rust and crumbling stone. "HODOR!" Hodor shouted. The heavy iron grate gave Bran
another bang in the head, and crashed down near Jojen's feet when he shoved it off of him. Meera
laughed. "Look at that, my prince," she said, "you're stronger than Hodor." Bran blushed.
With the grate gone, Hodor was able to boost Meera and Jojen up through the gaping murder hole. The
crannogmen took Bran by the arms and drew him up after them. Getting Hodor inside was the hard part.
He was too heavy for the Reeds to lift the way they'd lifted Bran. Finally Bran told him to go look for
some big rocks. The island had no lack of those, and Hodor was able to pile them high enough to grab
the crumbling edges of the hole and climb through. "Hodor, " he panted happily, grinning at all of them.
They found themselves in a maze of small cells, dark and empty, but Meera explored until she found the
way back to the steps. The higher they climbed, the better the light; on the third story the thick outer wall
was pierced by arrow slits, the fourth had actual windows, and the fifth and highest was one big round
chamber with arched doors on three sides opening onto small stone balconies. On the fourth side was a
privy chamber perched above a sewer chute that dropped straight down into the lake.
By the time they reached the roof the sky was completely overcast, and the clouds to the west were
black. The wind was blowing so strong it lifted up Bran's cloak and made it flap and snap. "Hodor,"
Hodor said at the noise.
Meera spun in a circle. "I feel almost a giant, standing high above the world."
"There are trees in the Neck that stand twice as tall as this," her brother reminded her.
"Aye, but they have other trees around them just as high," said Meera. "The world presses close in the
Neck, and the sky is so much smaller. Here ... feel that wind, Brother? And look how large the world
has grown."
It was true, you could see a long ways from up here. To the south the foothills rose, with the mountains
grey and green beyond them. The
rolling plains of the New Gift stretched away to all the other directions, as far as the eye could see. "I
was hoping we could see the Wall from here," said Bran, disappointed. "That was stupid, we must still be
fifty leagues away." just speaking of it made him feel tired, and cold as well. "Jojen, what will we do when
we reach the Wall? My uncle always said how big it was. Seven hundred feet high, and so thick at the
base that the gates are more like tunnels through the ice. How are we going to get past to find the
three-eyed crow?"
"There are abandoned castles along the Wall, I've heard," Jojen answered. "Fortresses built by the
Night's Watch but now left empty. One of them may give us our way through."
The ghost castles, Old Nan had called them. Maester Luwin had once made Bran learn the names of
every one of the forts along the Wall. That had been hard; there were nineteen of them all told, though no
more than seventeen had ever been manned at any one time. At the feast in honor of King Robert's visit
to Winterfell, Bran had recited the names for his uncle Benjen, east to west and then west to east. Benjen
Stark had laughed and said, "You know them better than I do, Bran. Perhaps you should be First
Ranger. I'll stay here in your place." That was before Bran fell, though. Before he was broken. By the
time he'd woken crippled from his sleep, his uncle had gone back to Castle Black.


"My uncle said the gates were sealed with ice and stone whenever a castle had to be abandoned," said
Bran.
"Then we'll have to open them again," said Meera.
That made him uneasy. "We shouldn't do that. Bad things might come through from the other side. We
should just go to Castle Black and tell the Lord Commander to let us pass."
"Your Grace," said Jojen, "we must avoid Castle Black, just as we avoided the kingsroad. There are
hundreds of men there."
"Men of the Night's Watch," said Bran. "They say vows, to take no part in wars and stuff."
"Aye," said Jojen, "but one man willing to forswear himself would be enough to sell your secret to the
ironmen or the Bastard of Bolton. And we cannot be certain that the Watch would agree to let us pass.
They might decide to hold us or send us back."
"But my father was a friend of the Night's Watch, and my uncle is First Ranger. He might know where
the three-eyed crow lives. And Jon's at Castle Black too." Bran had been hoping to see Jon again, and
their uncle too. The last black brothers to visit Winterfell said that Benjen Stark had vanished on a
ranging, but surely he would have made his way back by now. "I bet the Watch would even give us
horses," he went on.
"Quiet." Jojen shaded his eyes with a hand and gazed off toward the setting sun. "Look. There's
something ... a rider, I think. Do you see him?"
Bran shaded his eyes as well, and even so he had to squint. He saw nothing at first, till some movement
made him turn. At first he thought it might be Summer, but no. A man on a horse. He was too far away to
see much else.
"Hodor?" Hodor had put a hand over his eyes as well, only he was looking the wrong way. "Hodor?"
"He is in no haste," said Meera, "but he's making for this village, it seems to me."
"We had best go inside, before we're seen," said Jojen.
"Summer's near the village," Bran objected.
"Summer will be fine," Meera promised. "It's only one man on a tired horse."
A few fat wet drops began to patter against the stone as they retreated to the floor below. That was well
timed; the rain began to fall in earnest a short time later. Even through the thick walls they could hear it
lashing against the surface of the lake. They sat on the floor in the round empty room, amidst gathering
gloom. The north-facing balcony looked out toward the abandoned village. Meera crept out on her belly
to peer across the lake and see what had become of the horseman. "He's taken shelter in the ruins of the
inn," she told them when she came back. "it looks as though he's making a fire in the hearth."
"I wish we could have a fire," Bran said. "I'm cold. There's broken furniture down the stairs, I saw it. We
could have Hodor chop it up and get warm."
Hodor liked that idea. "Hodor," he said hopefully.


Jojen shook his head. "Fire means smoke. Smoke from this tower could be seen a long way off."
"If there were anyone to see," his sister argued.
"There's a man in the village."
"One man."
"One man would be enough to betray Bran to his enemies, if he's the wrong man. We still have half a
duck from yesterday. We should eat and rest. Come morning the man will go on his way, and we will do
the same."
Jojen had his way; he always did. Meera divided the duck between the four of them. She'd caught it in
her net the day before, as it tried to rise from the marsh where she'd surprised it. It wasn't as tasty cold as
it had been hot and crisp from the spit, but at least they did not go hungry. Bran and Meera shared the
breast while Jojen ate the thigh. Hodor devoured the wing and leg, muttering "Hodor" and licking the
grease off his fingers after every bite. It was Bran's turn to tell a story, so he told them about another
Brandon Stark, the one called Brandon the Shipwright, who had sailed off beyond the Sunset Sea.
Dusk was settling by the time duck and tale were done, and the rain
still fell. Bran wondered how far Summer had roamed and whether he had caught one of the deer.
Grey gloom filled the tower, and slowly changed to darkness. Hodor grew restless and walked awhile,
striding round and round the walls and stopping to peer into the privy on every circuit, as if he had
forgotten what was in there. Jojen stood by the north balcony, hidden by the shadows, looking out at the
night and the rain. Somewhere to the north a lightning bolt crackled across the sky, brightening the inside
of the tower for an instant. Hodor jumped and made a frightened noise. Bran counted to eight, waiting for
the thunder. When it came, Hodor shouted, "Hodor!"
I hope Summer isn't scared too, Bran thought. The dogs in Winterfell's kennels had always been
spooked by thunderstorms, just like Hodor. I should go see, to calm him ...
The lightning flashed again, and this time the thunder came at six. "Hodor!" Hodor yelled again.
"HODOR! HODOR!" He snatched up his sword, as if to fight the storm.
Jojen said, "Be quiet, Hodor. Bran, tell him not to shout. Can you get the sword away from him,
Meera?"
"I can try."
"Hodor, hush," said Bran. "Be quiet now. No more stupid hodoring. Sit down."
"Hodor?" He gave the longsword to Meera meekly enough, but his face was a mask of confusion.
Jojen turned back to the darkness, and they all heard him suck in his breath. "What is it?" Meera asked.
"Men in the village."
"The man we saw before?"


"Other men. Armed. I saw an axe, and spears as well." Joien had never sounded so much like the boy
he was. "I saw them when the lightning flashed, moving under the trees."
"How many?"
"Many and more. Too many to count."
"Mounted?
"No."
"Hodor." Hodor sounded frightened. "Hodor. Hodor."
Bran felt a little scared himself, though he didn't want to say so in front of Meera. "What if they come out
here?"
"They won't." She sat down beside him. "Why should they?"
"For shelter." Jojen's voice was grim. "Unless the storm lets up. Meera, could you go down and bar the
door?"
"I couldn't even close it. The wood's too warped. They won't get past those iron gates, though."
"They might. They could break the lock, or the hinges. Or climb up through the murder hole as we did."
Lightning slashed the sky, and Hodor whimpered. Then a clap of thunder rolled across the lake.
"HODOR!" he roared, clapping his hands over his ears and stumbling in a circle through the darkness.
"HODOR! HODOR! HODOR!"
"NO!" Bran shouted back. "NO HODORING!"
It did no good. "HOOOODOR!" moaned Hodor. Meera tried to catch him and calm him, but he was
too strong. He flung her aside with no more than a shrug. "HOOOOOODOOOOOOOR!" the stableboy
screamed as lightning filled the sky again, and even Jojen was shouting now, shouting at Bran and Meera
to shut him up.
"Be quiet!" Bran said in a shrill scared voice, reaching up uselessly for Hodor's leg as he crashed past,
reaching, reaching.
Hodor staggered, and closed his mouth. He shook his head slowly from side to side, sank back to the
floor, and sat crosslegged. When the thunder boomed, he scarcely seemed to hear it. The four of them
sat in the dark tower, scarce daring to breathe.
"Bran, what did you do?" Meera whispered.
"Nothing." Bran shook his head. "I don't know." But he did. I reached for him, the way I reach for
Summer. He had been Hodor for half a heartbeat. It scared him.
"Something is happening across the lake," said Jojen. "I thought I saw a man pointing at the tower."


I won't be afraid. He was the Prince of Winterfell, Eddard Stark's son, almost a man grown and a warg
too, not some little baby boy like Rickon. Summer would not be afraid. "Most like they're just some
Umbers," he said. "Or they could be Knotts or Norreys or Flints come down from the mountains, or
even brothers from the Night's Watch. Were they wearing black cloaks, Jojen?"
"By night all cloaks are black, Your Grace. And the flash came and went too fast for me to tell what they
were wearing."
Meera was wary. "If they were black brothers, they'd be mounted, wouldn't they?"
Bran had thought of something else. "It doesn't matter," he said confidently. "They couldn't get out to us
even if they wanted. Not unless they had a boat, or knew about the causeway."
"The causeway!" Meera mussed Bran's hair and kissed him on the forehead. "Our sweet prince! He's
right, Jojen, they won't know about the causeway. Even if they did they could never find the way across
at night in the rain."
"The night will end, though. If they stay till morning..." Jojen left the rest unsaid. After a few moments he
said, "They are feeding the fire
the first man started." Lightning crashed through the sky, and light filled the tower and etched them all in
shadow. Hodor rocked back and forth, humming.
Bran could feel Summer's fear in that bright instant. He closed two eyes and opened a third, and his
boy's skin slipped off him like a cloak as he left the tower behind ...
... and found himself out in the rain, his belly full of deer, cringing in the brush as the sky broke and
boomed above him. The smell of rotten apples and wet leaves almost drowned the scent of man, but it
was there. He heard the clink and slither of hardskin, saw men moving under the trees. A man with a
stick blundered by, a skin pulled up over his head to make him blind and deaf. The wolf went wide
around him, behind a dripping thornbush and beneath the bare branches of an apple tree. He could hear
them talking, and there beneath the scents of rain and leaves and horse came the sharp red stench of fear
...
Chapter 41
JON
The ground was littered with pine needles and blown leaves, a carpet of green and brown still damp
from the recent rains. It squished beneath their feet. Huge bare oaks, tall sentinels, and hosts of soldier
pines stood all around them. On a hill above them was another roundtower, ancient and empty, thick
green moss crawling up its side almost to the summit. "Who built that, all of stone like that?" Ygritte
asked him. "Some king?"
"No. just the men who used to live here."
"What happened to them?"


"They died or went away." Brandon's Gift had been farmed for thousands of years, but as the Watch
dwindled there were fewer hands to plow the fields, tend the bees, and plant the orchards, so the wild
had reclaimed many a field and hall. In the New Gift there had been villages and holdfasts whose taxes,
rendered in goods and labor, helped feed and clothe the black brothers. But those were largely gone as
well.
"They were fools to leave such a castle," said Ygritte.
"It's only a towerhouse. Some little lordling lived there once, with his family and a few sworn men. When
raiders came he would light a beacon from the roof. Winterfell has towers three times the size of that."
She looked as if she thought he was making that up. "How could men build so high, with no giants to lift
the stones?"
In legend, Brandon the Builder had used giants to help raise Winterfell, but Jon did not want to confuse
the issue. "Men can build a lot higher than this. In Oldtown there's a tower taller than the Wall." He could
tell she did not believe him. If I could show her Winterfell ... give her a
flower from the glass gardens, feast her in the Great Hall, and show her the stone kings on their thrones.
We could bathe in the hot pools, and love beneath the heart tree while the old gods watched over us.
The dream was sweet ... but Winterfell would never be his to show. It belonged to his brother, the King
in the North. He was a Snow, not a Stark. Bastard, oathbreaker, and tumcloak ...
"Might be after we could come back here, and live in that tower," she said. "Would you want that, Jon
Snow? After?"
After. The word was a spear thrust. After the war. After the conquest. After the wildlings break the Wall
...
His lord father had once talked about raising new lords and settling them in the abandoned holdfasts as a
shield against wildlings. The plan would have required the Watch to yield back a large part of the Gift,
but his uncle Benjen believed the Lord Commander could be won around, so long as the new lordlings
paid taxes to Castle Black rather than Winterfell. "It is a dream for spring, though," Lord Eddard had
said. "Even the promise of land will not lure men north with a winter coming on."
If winter had come and gone more quickly and spring had followed in its turn, I might have been chosen
to hold one of these towers in my father's name. Lord Eddard was dead, however, his brother Benjen
lost; the shield they dreamt together would never be forged. "This land belongs to the Watch," Jon said.
Her nostrils flared. "No one lives here."
"Your raiders drove them off."
"They were cowards, then. if they wanted the land they should have stayed and fought."
"Maybe they were tired of fighting. Tired of barring their doors every night and wondering if Rattleshirt
or someone like him would break them down to carry off their wives. Tired of having their harvests
stolen, and any valuables they might have. It's easier to move beyond the reach of raiders." But if the
Wall should fail, all the north will lie within the reach of raiders.


"You know nothing, Jon Snow. Daughters are taken, not wives. You're the ones who steal. You took
the whole world, and built the Wall t' keep the free folk out."
"Did we?" Sometimes Jon forgot how wild she was, and then she would remind him. "How did that
happen?"
"The gods made the earth for all men t' share. Only when the kings come with their crowns and steel
swords, they claimed it was all theirs. My trees, they said, you can't eat them apples. My stream, you
can't fish here. My wood, you're not t'hunt. My earth, my water, my castle, my daughter, keep your
hands away or I'll chop 'em off, but maybe if you kneel t' me I'll let you have a sniff. You call us thieves,
but at least a
thief has t' be brave and clever and quick. A kneeler only has t' kneel." "Harma and the Bag of Bones
don't come raiding for fish and apples. They steal swords and axes. Spices, silks, and furs. They grab
every coin and ring and jeweled cup they can find, casks of wine in summer and casks of beef in winter,
and they take women in any season and carry them off beyond the Wall."
"And what if they do? I'd sooner be stolen by a strong man than be given t' some weakling by my
father."
"You say that, but how can you know? What if you were stolen by someone you hated?"
"He'd have t' be quick and cunning and brave t' steal me. So his sons would be strong and smart as well.
Why would I hate such a man as that? "
"Maybe he never washes, so he smells as rank as a bear."
"Then I'd push him in a stream or throw a bucket o' water on him. Anyhow, men shouldn't smell sweet
like flowers."
"What's wrong with flowers?"
"Nothing, for a bee. For bed I want one o' these." Ygritte made to grab the front of his breeches.
Jon caught her wrist. "What if the man who stole you drank too much?" he insisted. "What if he was
brutal or cruel?" He tightened his grip to make a point. "What if he was stronger than you, and liked to
beat you bloody?"
"I'd cut his throat while he slept. You know nothing, Jon Snow." Ygritte twisted like an eel and
wrenched away from him.
I know one thing. I know that you are wildling to the bone. It was easy to forget that sometimes, when
they were laughing together, or kissing. But then one of them would say something, or do something, and
he would suddenly be reminded of the wall between their worlds.
"A man can own a woman or a man can own a knife," Ygritte told him, "but no man can own both.
Every little girl learns that from her mother." She raised her chin defiantly and gave her thick red hair a
shake. "And men can't own the land no more'n they can own the sea or the sky. You kneelers think you
do, but Mance is going t' show you different."


It was a fine brave boast, but it rang hollow. Jon glanced back to make certain the Magnar was not in
earshot. Errok, Big Boil, and Hempen Dan were walking a few yards behind them, but paying no
attention. Big Boil was complaining of his arse. "Ygritte," he said in a low voice, "Mance cannot win this
war."
"He can!" she insisted. "You know nothing, Jon Snow. You have never seen the free folk fight!"
Wildlings fought like heroes or demons, depending on who you talked to, but it came down to the same
thing in the end. They fight with
reckless courage, every man out for glory. "I don't doubt that you're all very brave, but when it comes to
battle, discipline beats valor every time. in the end Mance will fail as all the Kings-beyond-the-Wall have
failed before him. And when he does, you'll die. All of you."
Ygritte had looked so angry he thought she was about to strike him. "All of us," she said. "You too.
You're no crow now, Jon Snow. I swore you weren't, so you better not be." She pushed him back
against the trunk of a tree and kissed him, full on the lips right there in the midst of the ragged column. Jon
heard Grigg the Goat urging her on. Someone else laughed. He kissed her back despite all that. When
they finally broke apart, Ygritte was flushed. "You're mine," she whispered. "Mine, as I'm yours. And if
we die, we die. All men must die, Jon Snow. But first we'll live."
"Yes." His voice was thick. "First we'll live."
She grinned at that, showing Jon the crooked teeth that he had somehow come to love. Wildling to the
bone, he thought again, with a sick sad feeling in the pit of his stomach. He flexed the fingers of his sword
hand, and wondered what Ygritte would do if she knew his heart. Would she betray him if he sat her
down and told her that he was still Ned Stark's son and a man of the Night's Watch? He hoped not, but
he dare not take that risk. Too many lives depended on his somehow reaching Castle Black before the
Magnar ... assuming he found a chance to escape the wildlings.
They had descended the south face of the Wall at Greyguard, abandoned for two hundred years. A
section of the huge stone steps had collapsed a century before, but even so the descent was a good deal
easier than the climb. From there Styr marched them deep into the Gift, to avoid the Watch's customary
patrols. Grigg the Goat led them past the few inhabited villages that remained in these lands. Aside from a
few scattered roundtowers poking the sky like stone fingers, they saw no sign of man. Through cold wet
hills and windy plains they marched, unwatched, unseen.
You must not balk, whatever is asked of you, the Halfhand had said. Ride with them, eat with them, fight
with them, for as long as it takes. He'd ridden many leagues and walked for more, had shared their bread
and salt, and Ygritte's blankets as well, but still they did not trust him. Day and night the Therms watched
him, alert for any signs of betrayal. He could not get away, and soon it would be too late.
Fight with them, Qhorin had said, before he surrendered his own life to Longclaw ... but it had not come
to that, till now. Once I shed a brother's blood I am lost. I cross the Wall for good then, and there is no
crossing back.
After each day's march the Magnar summoned him to ask shrewd
sharp questions about Castle Black, its garrison and defenses. Jon lied where he dared and feigned
ignorance a few times, but Grigg the Goat and Errok listened as well, and they knew enough to make Jon
careful. Too blatant a lie would betray him.


But the truth was terrible. Castle Black had no defenses, but for the Wall itself. It lacked even wooden
palisades or earthen dikes. The "castle" was nothing more than a cluster of towers and keeps, two-thirds
of them falling into ruin. As for the garrison, the Old Bear had taken two hundred on his ranging. Had any
returned? Jon could not know. Perhaps four hundred remained at the castle, but most of those were
builders or stewards, not rangers.
The Therms were hardened warriors, and more disciplined than the common run of wildling; no doubt
that was why Mance had chosen them. The defenders of Castle Black would include blind Maester
Aemon and his half-blind steward Clydas, one-armed Donal Noye, drunken Septon Cellador, Deaf Dick
Follard, Three-Finger Hobb the cook, old Ser Wynton Stout, as well as Halder and Toad and Pyp and
Albett and the rest of the boys who'd trained with Jon. And commanding them would be red-faced
Bowen Marsh, the plump Lord Steward who had been made castellan in Lord Mormont's absence.
Dolorous Edd sometimes called Marsh "the Old Pomegranate," which fit him just as well as "the Old
Bear" fit Mon mont. "He's the man you want in front when the foes are in the field," Edd would say in his
usual dour voice. "He'll count them right up for you. A regular demon for counting, that one."
If the Magnar takes Castle Black unawares, it will be red slaughter, boys butchered in their beds before
they know they are under attack. Jon had to warn them, but how? He was never sent out to forage or
hunt, nor allowed to stand a watch alone. And he feared for Ygritte as well. He could not take her, but if
he left her, would the Magnar make her answer for his treachery? Two hearts that beat as one ...
They shared the same sleeping skins every night, and he went to sleep with her head against his chest
and her red hair tickling his chin. The smell of her had become a part of him. Her crooked teeth, the feel
of her breast when he cupped it in his hand, the taste of her mouth ... they were his joy and his despair.
Many a night he lay with Ygritte warm beside him, wondering if his lord father had felt this confused
about his mother, whoever she had been. Ygritte set the trap and Mance Rayder pushed me into it.
Every day he spent among the wildlings made what he had to do that much harder. He was going to
have to find some way to betray these men, and when he did they would die. He did not want their
friendship, any more than he wanted Ygritte's love. And yet ... the Therms spoke the Old Tongue and
seldom talked to Jon at all, but it was different with
Jarl's raiders, the men who'd climbed the Wall. Jon was coming to know them despite himself: gaunt,
quiet Errok and gregarious Grigg the Goat, the boys Quort and Bodger, Hempen Dan the ropernaker.
The worst of the lot was Del, a horsefaced youth near Jon's own age, who would talk dreamily of this
wildling girl he meant to steal. "She's lucky, like your Ygritte. She's kissed by fire."
Jon had to bite his tongue. He didn't want to know about Del's girl or Bodger's mother, the place by the
sea that Henk the Helm came from, how Grigg yearned to visit the green men on the isle of Faces, or the
time a moose had chased Toefinger up a tree. He didn't want to hear about the boil on Big Boil's arse,
how much ale Stone Thumbs could drink, or how Quort's little brother had begged him not to go with
Jarl. Quort could not have been older than fourteen, though he'd already stolen himself a wife and had a
child on the way. "Might be he'll be born in some castle," the boy boasted. "Born in a castle like a lord!"
He was very taken with the "castles" they'd seen, by which he meant watchtowers.
Jon wondered where Ghost was now. Had he gone to Castle Black, or was he was running with some
wolfpack in the woods? He had no sense of the direwolf, not even in his dreams. It made him feel as if
part of himself had been cut off. Even with Ygritte sleeping beside him, he felt alone. He did not want to
die alone.


By that afternoon the trees had begun to thin, and they marched east over gently rolling plains. Grass
rose waist high around them, and stands of wild wheat swayed gently when the wind came gusting, but
for the most part the day was warm and bright. Toward sunset, however, clouds began to threaten in the
west. They soon engulfed the orange sun, and Lerm foretold a bad storm coming. His mother was a
woods witch, so all the raiders agreed he had a gift for foretelling the weather. "There's a village close,"
Grigg the Goat told the Magnar. "Two miles, three. We could shelter there." Styr agreed at once.
It was well past dark and the storm was raging by the time they reached the place. The village sat beside
a lake, and had been so long abandoned that most of the houses had collapsed. Even the small timber inn
that must once have been a welcome sight for travelers stood half-fallen and roofless. We will find scant
shelter here, Jon thought gloomily. Whenever the lightning flashed he could see a stone roundtower rising
from an island out in the lake, but without boats they had no way to reach it.
Errok and Del had crept ahead to scout the ruins, but Del was back almost at once. Styr halted the
column and sent a dozen of his Therms trotting forward, spears in hand. By then Jon had seen it too: the
glimmer of a fire, reddening the chimney of the inn. We are not alone. Dread coiled inside him like a
snake. He heard a horse neigh, and then shouts. Ride with them, eat with them, fight with them, Qhorin
had said.
But the fighting was done. "There's only one of them," Errok said when he came back. "An old man with
a horse."
The Magnar shouted commands in the Old Tongue and a score of his Therms spread out to establish a
perimeter around the village, whilst others went prowling through the houses to make certain no one else
was hiding amongst the weeds and tumbled stones. The rest crowded into the roofless inn, jostling each
other to get closer to the hearth. The broken branches the old man had been burning seemed to generate
more smoke than heat, but any warmth was welcome on such a wild rainy night. Two of the Therms had
thrown the man to the ground and were going through his things. Another held his horse, while three more
looted his saddlebags.
Jon walked away. A rotten apple squished beneath his heel. Styr will kill him. The Magnar had said as
much at Greyguard; any kneelers they met were to be put to death at once, to make certain they could
not raise the alarm. Ride with them, eat with them, fight with them. Did that mean he must stand mute and
helpless while they slit an old man's throat?
Near the edge of the village, Jon came face-to-face with one of the guards Styr had posted. The Therm
growled something in the Old Tongue and pointed his spear back toward the inn. Get back where you
belong, Jon guessed. But where is that?
He walked towards the water, and discovered an almost dry spot beneath the leaning daub-and-wattle
wall of a tumbledown cottage that had mostly tumbled down. That was where Ygritte found him sitting,
staring off across the rain-whipped lake. "I know this place," he told her when she sat beside him. "That
tower ... look at the top of it the next time the lightning flashes, and tell me what you see."
"Aye, if you like," she said, and then, "Some o' the Therms are saying they heard noises out there.
Shouting, they say."
"Thunder."
"They say shouting. Might be it's ghosts."


The holdfast did have a grim haunted look, standing there black against the storm on its rocky island with
the rain lashing at the lake all around it. "We could go out and take a look," he suggested. "I doubt we
could get much wetter than we are."
"Swimming? In the storm?" She laughed at the notion. "Is this a trick t' get the clothes off me, Jon
Snow?"
"Do I need a trick for that now?" he teased. "Or is that you can't swim a stroke?" Jon was a strong
swimmer himself, having learned the art as a boy in Winterfell's great moat.
Ygritte punched his arm. "You know nothing, Jon Snow. I'm half a fish, I'll have you know."
"Half fish, half goat, half horse ... there's too many halves to you, Ygritte." He shook his head. "We
wouldn't need to swim, if this is the place I think. We could walk."
She pulled back and gave him a look. "Walk on water? What southron sorcery is that?"
"No sorc - " he began, as a huge bolt of lightning stabbed down from the sky and touched the surface of
the lake. For half a heartbeat the world was noonday bright. The clap of thunder was so loud that Ygritte
gasped and covered her ears.
"Did you look?" Jon asked, as the sound rolled away and the night turned black again. "Did you see?"
"Yellow," she said. "Is that what you meant? Some o' them standing stones on top were yellow."
"We call them merlons. They were painted gold a long time ago. This is Queenscrown."
Across the lake, the tower was black again, a dim shape dimly seen. "A queen lived there?" asked
Ygritte.
"A queen stayed there for a night." Old Nan had told him the story, but Maester Luwin had confirmed
most of it. "Alysanne, the wife of King jaehaerys the Conciliator. He's called the Old King because he
reigned so long, but he was young when he first came to the Iron Throne. In those days, it was his wont
to travel all over the realm. When he came to Winterfell, he brought his queen, six dragons, and half his
court. The king had matters to discuss with his Warden of the North, and Alysanne grew bored, so she
mounted her dragon Silverwing and flew north to see the Wall. This village was one of the places where
she stopped. Afterward the smallfolk painted the top of their holdfast to look like the golden crown she'd
worn when she spent the night among them."
"I have never seen a dragon."
"No one has. The last dragons died a hundred years ago or more. But this was before that."
"Queen Alysanne, you say?"
"Good Queen Alysanne, they called her later. One of the castles on the Wall was named for her as well.
Queensgate. Before her visit they called it Snowgate."
"If she was so good, she should have torn that Wall down."
No, he thought. The Wall protects the realm. From the Others ... and from you and your kind as well,


sweetling. "I had another friend who dreamed of dragons. A dwarf. He told me - "
"JON SNOW!" One of the Thenns loomed above them, frowning. "Magnar wants." Jon thought it might
have been the same man who'd found him outside the cave, the night before they climbed the Wall, but
he could not be sure. He got to his feet. Ygritte came with him, which
always made Styr frown, but whenever he tried to dismiss her she would remind him that she was a free
woman, not a kneeler. She came and went as she pleased.
They found the Magnar standing beneath the tree that grew through the floor of the common room. His
captive knelt before the hearth, encircled by wooden spears and bronze swords. He watched Jon
approach, but did not speak. The rain was running down the walls and pattering against the last few
leaves that still clung to the tree, while smoke swirled thick from the fire.
"He must die," Styr the Magnar said. "Do it, crow."
The old man said no word. He only looked at Jon, standing amongst the wildlings. Amidst the rain and
smoke, lit only by the fire, he could not have seen that Jon was all in black, but for his sheepskin cloak.
Or could he?
Jon drew Longclaw from its sheath. Rain washed the steel, and the firelight traced a sullen orange line
along the edge. Such a small fire, to cost a man his life. He remembered what Qhorin Halfhand had said
when they spied the fire in the Skirling Pass. Fire is life up here, he told them, but it can be death as well.
That was high in the Frostfangs, though, in the lawless wild beyond the Wall. This was the Gift, protected
by the Night's Watch and the power of Winterfell. A man should have been free to build a fire here,
without dying for it.
"Why do you hesitate?" Styr said. "Kill him, and be done."
Even then the captive did not speak. "Mercy," he might have said, or "You have taken my horse, my
coin, my food, let me keep my life," or "No, please, I have done you no harm." He might have said a
thousand things, or wept, or called upon his gods. No words would save him now, though. Perhaps he
knew that. So he held his tongue, and looked at Jon in accusation and appeal.
You must not balk, whatever is asked of you. Ride with them, eat with them, fight with them ... But this
old man had offered no resistance. He had been unlucky, that was all. Who he was, where he came
from, where he meant to go on his sorry sway-backed horse ... none of it mattered.
He is an old man, Jon told himself. Fifty, maybe even sixty. He lived a longer life than most. The Thenns
will kill him anyway, nothing I can say or do will save him. Longclaw seemed heavier than lead in his
hand, too heavy to lift. The man kept staring at him, with eyes as big and black as wells. I will fall into
those eyes and drown. The Magnar was looking at him too, and he could almost taste the mistrust. The
man is dead. What matter if it is my hand that slays him? One cut would do it, quick and clean. Longclaw
was forged of Valyrian steel. Like Ice. Jon remembered another killing; the deserter on his knees, his
head rolling,
the brightness of blood on snow ... his father's sword, his father's words, his father's face ...
"Do it, Jon Snow," Ygritte urged. "You must. T' prove you are no crow, but one o' the free folk."
"An old man sitting by a fire?"


"Orell was sitting by a fire too. You killed him quick enough." The look she gave him then was hard.
"You meant t' kill me too, till you saw I was a woman. And I was asleep."
"That was different. You were soldiers ... sentries."
"Aye, and you crows didn't want V be seen. No moren we do, now. It's just the same. Kill him."
He turned his back on the man. "No."
The Magnar moved closer, tall, cold, and dangerous. "I say yes. I command here."
"You command Therms," Jon told him, "not free folk."
"I see no free folk. I see a crow and a crow wife."
"I'm no crow wife!" Ygritte snatched her knife from its sheath. Three quick strides, and she yanked the
old man's head back by the hair and opened his throat from ear to ear. Even in death, the man did not
cry out. "You know nothing, Jon Snow!" she shouted at him, and flung the bloody blade at his feet.
The Magnar said something in the Old Tongue. He might have been telling the Therms to kill Jon where
he stood, but he would never know the truth of that. Lightning crashed down from the sky, a searing
bluewhite bolt that touched the top of the tower in the lake. They could smell the fury of it, and when the
thunder came it seemed to shake the night.
And death leapt down amongst them.
The lightning flash left Jon night-blind, but he glimpsed the hurtling shadow half a heartbeat before he
heard the shriek. The first Therm died as the old man had, blood gushing from his torn throat. Then the
light was gone and the shape was spinning away, snarling, and another man went down in the dark. There
were curses, shouts, howls of pain. Jon saw Big Boil stumble backward and knock down three men
behind him. Ghost, he thought for one mad instant. Ghost leapt the Wall. Then the lightning turned the
night to day, and he saw the wolf standing on Del's chest, blood running black from his jaws. Grey. He's
grey.
Darkness descended with the thunderclap. The Therms were jabbing with their spears as the wolf darted
between them. The old man's mare reared, maddened by the smell of slaughter, and lashed out with her
hooves. Longclaw was still in his hand. All at once Jon Snow knew he would never get a better chance.
He cut down the first man as he turned toward the wolf, shoved past
a second, slashed at a third. Through the madness he heard someone call his name, but whether it was
Ygritte or the Magnar he could not say. The Thenn fighting to control the horse never saw him. Longclaw
was feather-light. He swung at the back of the man's calf, and felt the steel bite down to the bone. When
the wildling fell the mare bolted, but somehow Jon managed to grab her mane with his off hand and vault
himself onto her back. A hand closed round his ankle, and he hacked down and saw Bodger's face
dissolve in a welter of blood. The horse reared, lashing out. one hoof caught a Thenn in the temple, with a
crunch.
And then they were running. Jon made no effort to guide the horse. It was all he could do to stay on her
as they plunged through mud and rain and thunder. Wet grass whipped at his face and a spear flew past


his ear. If the horse stumbles and breaks a leg, they will run me down and kill me, he thought, but the old
gods were with him and the horse did not stumble. Lightning shivered through the black dome of sky, and
thunder rolled across the plains. The shouts dwindled and died behind him.
Long hours later, the rain stopped. Jon found himself alone in a sea of tall black grass. There was a deep
throbbing ache in his right thigh. When he looked down, he was surprised to see an arrow jutting out the
back of it. When did that happen? He grabbed hold of the shaft and gave it a tug, but the arrowhead was
sunk deep in the meat of his leg, and the pain when he pulled on it was excruciating. He tried to think
back on the madness at the inn, but all he could remember was the beast, gaunt and grey and terrible. It
was too large to be a common wolf. A direwolf, then. It had to be. He had never seen an animal move so
fast. Like a grey wind ... Could Robb have returned to the north?
Jon shook his head. He had no answers. It was too hard to think ... about the wolf, the old man, Ygritte,
any of it ...
Clumsily, he slid down off the mare's back. His wounded leg buckled under him, and he had to swallow
a scream. This is going to be agony. The arrow had to come out, though, and nothing good could come
of waiting. Jon curled his hand around the fletching, took a deep breath, and shoved the arrow forward.
He grunted, then cursed. It hurt so much he had to stop. I am bleeding like a butchered pig, he thought,
but there was nothing to be done for it until the arrow was out. He grimaced and tried again ... and soon
stopped again, trembling. Once more. This time he screamed, but when he was done the arrowhead was
poking through the front of his thigh. Jon pushed back his bloody breeches to get a better grip, grimaced,
and slowly drew the shaft through his leg. How he got through that without fainting he never knew.
He lay on the ground afterward, clutching his prize and bleeding quietly, too weak to move. After a
while, he realized that if he did not make himself move he was like to bleed to death. Jon crawled to the
shallow stream where the mare was drinking, washed his thigh in the cold water, and bound it tight with
a strip of cloth torn from his cloak. He washed the arrow too, turning it in his hands. Was the fletching
grey, or white? Ygritte fletched her arrows with pale grey goose feathers. Did she loose a shaft at me as I
fled? Jon could not blame her for that. He wondered if she'd been aiming for him or the horse. If the mare
had gone down, he would have been doomed. "A lucky thing my leg got in the way," he muttered.
He rested for a while to let the horse graze. She did not wander far. That was good. Hobbled with a bad
leg, he could never have caught her. It was all he could do to force himself back to his feet and climb
onto her back. How did I ever mount her before, without saddle or stirrups, and a sword in one hand?
That was another question he could not answer.
Thunder rumbled softly in the distance, but above him the clouds were breaking up. Jon searched the
sky until he found the Ice Dragon, then turned the mare north for the Wall and Castle Black. The throb of
pain in his thigh muscle made him wince as he put his heels into the old man's horse. I am going home, he
told himself. But if that was true, why did he feel so hollow?
He rode till dawn, while the stars stared down like eyes.
Chapter 42
DAENERYS


Her Dothraki scouts had told her how it was, but Dany wanted to see for herself. Ser Jorah Mormont
rode with her through a birchwood forest and up a slanting sandstone ridge. "Near enough," he warned
her at the crest.
Dany reined in her mare and looked across the fields, to where the Yunkish host lay athwart her path.
Whitebeard had been teaching her how best to count the numbers of a foe. "Five thousand," she said
after a moment.
"I'd say so." Ser Jorah pointed. "Those are sellswords on the flanks. Lances and mounted bowmen, with
swords and axes for the close work. The Second Sons on the left wing, the Stormcrows to the right.
About five hundred men apiece. See the banners?"
Yunkai's harpy grasped a whip and iron collar in her talons instead of a length of chain. But the
sellswords flew their own standards beneath those of the city they served: on the right four crows
between crossed thunderbolts, on the left a broken sword. "The Yunkai'i hold the center themselves,"
Dany noted. Their officers looked indistinguishable from Astapor's at a distance; tall bright helms and
cloaks sewn with flashing copper disks. "Are those slave soldiers they lead?"
"In large part. But not the equal of Unsullied. Yunkai is known for training bed slaves, not warriors."
"What say you? Can we defeat this army?"
"Easily," Ser Jorah said.
"But not bloodlessly." Blood aplenty had soaked into the bricks of Astapor the day that city fell, though
little of it belonged to her or hers.
"We might win a battle here, but at such cost we cannot take the city." "That is ever a risk, Khaleesi.
Astapor was complacent and vulnerable. Yunkai is forewarned."
Dany considered. The slaver host seemed small compared to her own numbers, but the sellswords were
ahorse. She'd ridden too long with Dothraki not to have a healthy respect for what mounted warriors
could do to foot. The Unsullied could withstand their charge, but my freedmen will be slaughtered. "The
slavers like to talk," she said. "Send word that I will hear them this evening in my tent. And invite the
captains of the sellsword companies to call on me as well. But not together. The Stormcrows at midday,
the Second Sons two hours later."
"As you wish," Ser Jorah said. "But if they do not come -
"They'll come. They will be curious to see the dragons and hear what I might have to say, and the clever
ones will see it for a chance to gauge my strength." She wheeled her silver mare about. "I'll await them in
my pavilion."
Slate skies and brisk winds saw Dany back to her host. The deep ditch that would encircle her camp
was already half dug, and the woods were full of Unsullied lopping branches off birch trees to sharpen
into stakes. The eunuchs could not sleep in an unfortified camp, or so Grey Worm insisted. He was there
watching the work. Dany halted a moment to speak with him. "Yunkai has girded up her loins for battle."
"This is good, Your Grace. These ones thirst for blood."


When she had commanded the Unsullied to choose officers from amongst themselves, Grey Worm had
been their overwhelming choice for the highest rank. Dany had put Ser Jorah over him to train him for
command, and the exile knight said that so far the young eunuch was hard but fair, quick to learn, tireless,
and utterly unrelenting in his attention to detail.
"The Wise Masters have assembled a slave army to meet us."
"A slave in Yunkai learns the way of seven sighs and the sixteen seats of pleasure, Your Grace. The
Unsullied learn the way of the three spears. Your Grey Worm hopes to show you."
One of the first things Dany had done after the fall of Astapor was abolish the custom of giving the
Unsullied new slave names every day. Most of those born free had returned to their birth names; those
who still remembered them, at least. others had called themselves after heroes or gods, and sometimes
weapons, gems, and even flowers, which resulted in soldiers with some very peculiar names, to Dany's
ears. Grey Worm had remained Grey Worm. When she asked him why, he said, "It is a lucky name. The
name this one was born to was accursed. That was the name he had when he was taken for a slave. But
Grey Worm is the name this one drew the day Daenerys Stormborn set him free."
"If battle is joined, let Grey Worm show wisdom as well as valor," Dany told him. "Spare any slave who
runs or throws down his weapon. The fewer slain, the more remain to join us after."
"This one will remember."
"I know he will. Be at my tent by midday. I want you there with my other officers when I treat with the
sellsword captains." Dany spurred her silver on to camp.
Within the perimeter the Unsullied had established, the tents were going up in orderly rows, with her own
tall golden pavilion at the center. A second encampment lay close beyond her own; five times the size,
sprawling and chaotic, this second camp had no ditches, no tents, no sentries, no horselines. Those who
had horses or mules slept beside them, for fear they might be stolen. Goats, sheep, and half-starved dogs
wandered freely amongst hordes of women, children, and old men. Dany had left Astapor in the hands of
a council of former slaves led by a healer, a scholar, and a priest. Wise men all, she thought, and just. Yet
even so, tens of thousands preferred to follow her to Yunkai, rather than remain behind in Astapor. I
gave them the city, and most of them were too frightened to take it.
The raggle-taggle host of freedmen dwarfed her own, but they were more burden than benefit. Perhaps
one in a hundred had a donkey, a camel, or an ox; most carried weapons looted from some slaver's
armory, but only one in ten was strong enough to fight, and none was trained. They ate the land bare as
they passed, like locusts in sandals. Yet Dany could not bring herself to abandon them as Ser Jorah and
her bloodriders urged. I told them they were free. I cannot tell them now they are not free to join me. She
gazed at the smoke rising from their cookfires and swallowed a sigh. She might have the best footsoldiers
in the world, but she also had the worst.
Arstan Whitebeard stood outside the entrance of her tent, while Strong Belwas sat crosslegged on the
grass nearby, eating a bowl of figs. on the march, the duty of guarding her fell upon their shoulders. She
had made Jhogo, Aggo, and Rakharo her kos as well as her bloodriders, and just now she needed them
more to command her Dothraki than to protect her person. Her khalasar was tiny, some thirty-odd
mounted warriors, and most of them braidless boys and bentback old men. Yet they were all the horse
she had, and she dared not go without them. The Unsullied might be the finest infantry in all the world, as
Ser Jorah claimed, but she needed scouts and outriders as well.


"Yunkai will have war," Dany told Whitebeard inside the pavilion. Irri and Jhiqui had covered the floor
with carpets while Missandei lit a stick of incense to sweeten the dusty air. Drogon and Rhaegal were
asleep atop some cushions, curled about each other, but Viserion perched on
the edge of her empty bath. "Missandei, what language will these Yunkai'i speak, Valyrian?"
"Yes, Your Grace," the child said. "A different dialect than Astapor's, yet close enough to understand.
The slavers name themselves the Wise Masters."
"Wise?" Dany sat crosslegged on a cushion, and Viserion spread his white-and-gold wings and flapped
to her side. "We shall see how wise they are," she said as she scratched the dragon's scaly head behind
the horns.
Ser Jorah Mormont returned an hour later, accompanied by three captains of the Stormcrows. They
wore black feathers on their polished helms, and claimed to be all equal in honor and authority. Dany
studied them as Irri and Jhiqui poured the wine. Prendahl na Ghezn was a thickset Ghiscari with a broad
face and dark hair going grey; Sallor the Bald had a twisting scar across his pale Qartheen cheek; and
Daario Naharis was flamboyant even for a Tyroshi. His beard was cut into three prongs and dyed blue,
the same color as his eyes and the curly hair that fell to his collar. His pointed mustachios were painted
gold. His clothes were all shades of yellow; a foam of Myrish lace the color of butter spilled from his
collar and cuffs, his doublet was sewn with brass medallions in the shape of dandelions, and ornamental
goldwork crawled up his high leather boots to his thighs. Gloves of soft yellow suede were tucked into a
belt of gilded rings, and his fingernails were enameled blue.
But it was Prendahl na Ghezn who spoke for the sellswords. "You would do well to take your rabble
elsewhere," he said. "You took Astapor by treachery, but Yunkai shall not fall so easily."
"Five hundred of your Stormcrows against ten thousand of my Unsullied," said Dany. "I am only a young
girl and do not understand the ways of war, yet these odds seem poor to me."
"The Stormcrows do not stand alone," said Prendahl.
"Stormcrows do not stand at all. They fly, at the first sign of thunder. Perhaps you should be flying now.
I have heard that sellswords are notoriously unfaithful. What will it avail you to be staunch, when the
Second Sons change sides?"
"That will not happen," Prendahl insisted, unmoved. "And if it did, it would not matter. The Second Sons
are nothing. We fight beside the stalwart men of Yunkai."
"You fight beside bed-boys armed with spears." When she turned her head, the twin bells in her braid
rang softly. "Once battle is joined, do not think to ask for quarter. join me now, however, and you shall
keep the gold the Yunkaii paid you and claim a share of the plunder besides, with greater rewards later
when I come into my kingdom. Fight for the Wise Masters, and your wages will be death. Do you
imagine that Yunkai
will open its gates when my Unsullied are butchering you beneath the walls? "
"Woman, you bray like an ass, and make no more sense."
"Woman?" She chuckled. "Is that meant to insult me? I would return the slap, if I took you for a man."


Dany met his stare. "I am Daenerys Stormborn of House Targaryen, the Unburnt, Mother of Dragons,
khaleesi to Drogo's riders, and queen of the Seven Kingdoms of Westeros."
"What you are," said Prendahl na Ghezn, "is a horselord's whore. When we break you, I will breed you
to my stallion."
Strong Belwas drew his arakh. "Strong Belwas will give his ugly tongue to the little queen, if she likes."
"No, Belwas. I have given these men my safe conduct." She smiled. "Tell me this - are the Stormcrows
slave or free?"
"We are a brotherhood of free men," Sallor declared.
"Good." Dany stood. "Go back and tell your brothers what I said, then. it may be that some of them
would sooner sup on gold and glory than on death. I shall want your answer on the morrow."
The Stormcrow captains rose in unison. "Our answer is no," said Prendahl na Ghezn. His fellows
followed him out of the tent ... but Daario Naharis glanced back as he left, and inclined his head in polite
farewell.
Two hours later the commander of the Second Sons arrived alone. He proved to be a towering
Braavosi with pale green eyes and a bushy red-gold beard that reached nearly to his belt. His name was
Mero, but he called himself the Titan's Bastard.
Mero tossed down his wine straightaway, wiped his mouth with the back of his hand, and leered at
Dany. "I believe I fucked your twin sister in a pleasure house back home. Or was it you?"
"I think not. I would remember a man of such magnificence, I have no doubt."
"Yes, that is so. No woman has ever forgotten the Titan's Bastard." The Braavosi held out his cup to
Jhiqui. "What say you take those clothes off and come sit on my lap? If you please me, I might bring the
Second Sons over to your side."
"If you bring the Second Sons over to my side, I might not have you gelded."
The big man laughed. "Little girl, another woman once tried to geld me with her teeth. She has no teeth
now, but my sword is as long and thick as ever. Shall I take it out and show you?"
"No need. After my eunuchs cut it off, I can examine it at my leisure." Dany took a sip of wine. "It is true
that I am only a young girl, and do not know the ways of war. Explain to me how you propose to defeat
ten
thousand Unsullied with your five hundred. innocent as I am, these odds seem poor to me."
"The Second Sons have faced worse odds and won."
"The Second Sons have faced worse odds and run. At Qohor, when the Three Thousand made their
stand. Or do you deny it?"
"That was many and more years ago, before the Second Sons were led by the Titan's Bastard."


"So it is from you they get their courage?" Dany turned to Ser Jorah. "When the battle is joined, kill this
one first."
The exile knight smiled. "Gladly, Your Grace."
"Of course," she said to Mero, "you could run again. We will not stop you. Take your Yunkish gold and
go."
"Had you ever seen the Titan of Braavos, foolish girl, you would know that it has no tail to turn."
"Then stay, and fight for me."
"You are worth fighting for, it is true," the Braavosi said, "and I would gladly let you kiss my sword, if I
were free. But I have taken Yunkai's coin and pledged my holy word."
"Coins can be returned," she said. "I will pay you as much and more. I have other cities to conquer, and
a whole kingdom awaiting me half a world away. Serve me faithfully, and the Second Sons need never
seek hire again."
The Braavosi tugged on his thick red beard. "As much and more, and perhaps a kiss besides, eh? Or
more than a kiss? For a man as magnificent as me?"
"Perhaps."
"I will like the taste of your tongue, I think."
She could sense Ser Jorah's anger. My black bear does not like this talk of kissing. "Think on what I've
said tonight. Can I have your answer on the morrow?"
"You can." The Titan's Bastard grinned. "Can I have a flagon of this fine wine to take back to my
captains?"
"You may have a tun. It is from the cellars of the Good Masters of Astapor, and I have wagons full of
it."
"Then give me a wagon. A token of your good regard."
"You have a big thirst."
"I am big all over. And I have many brothers. The Titan's Bastard does not drink alone, Khaleesi."
"A wagon it is, if you promise to drink to my health."
"Done!" he boomed. "And done, and done! Three toasts we'll drink you, and bring you an answer when
the sun comes up."
But when Mero was gone, Arstan Whitebeard said, "That one has an evil reputation, even in Westeros.
Do not be misled by his manner, Your
Grace. He will drink three toasts to your health tonight, and rape you on the morrow."


"The old man's right for once," Ser Jorah said. "The Second Sons are an old company, and not without
valor, but under Mero they've turned near as bad as the Brave Companions. The man is as dangerous to
his employers as to his foes. That's why you find him out here. None of the Free Cities will hire him any
longer."
"It is not his reputation that I want, it's his five hundred horse. What of the Stormcrows, is there any
hope there?"
"No," Ser Jorah said bluntly. "That Prendahl is Ghiscari by blood. Likely he had kin in Astapor."
"A pity. Well, perhaps we will not need to fight. Let us wait and hear what the Yunkai'i have to say."
The envoys from Yunkai arrived as the sun was going down; fifty men on magnificent black horses and
one on a great white camel. Their helms were twice as tall as their heads, so as not to crush the bizarre
twists and towers and shapes of their oiled hair beneath. They dyed their linen skirts and tunics a deep
yellow, and sewed copper disks to their cloaks.
The man on the white camel named himself Grazdan mo Eraz. Lean and hard, he had a white smile such
as Kraznys had worn until Drogon burned off his face. His hair was drawn up in a unicorn's hom that
jutted from his brow, and his tokar was fringed with golden Myrish lace. "Ancient and glorious is Yunkai,
the queen of cities," he said when Dany welcomed him to her tent. "Our walls are strong, our nobles
proud and fierce, our common folk without fear. Ours is the blood of ancient Ghis, whose empire was
old when Valyria was yet a squalling child. You were wise to sit and speak, Khaleesi. You shall find no
easy conquest here. "
"Good. My Unsullied will relish a bit of a fight." She looked to Grey Worm, who nodded.
Grazdan shrugged expansively. "If blood is what you wish, let it flow. I am told you have freed your
eunuchs. Freedom means as much to an Unsullied as a hat to a haddock." He smiled at Grey Worm, but
the eunuch might have been made of stone. "Those who survive we shall enslave again, and use to retake
Astapor from the rabble. We can make a slave of you as well, do not doubt it. There are pleasure houses
in Lys and Tyrosh where men would pay handsomely to bed the last Targaryen.
"It is good to see you know who I am," said Dany mildly.
"I pride myself on my knowledge of the savage senseless west." Grazdan spread his hands, a gesture of
conciliation. "And yet, why should we speak thus harshly to one another? It is true that you committed
savageries in Astapor, but we Yunkai'i are a most forgiving people. Your quarrel is not with us, Your
Grace. Why squander your strength against
our mighty walls when you will need every man to regain your father's throne in far Westeros? Yunkai
wishes you only well in that endeavor. And to prove the truth of that, I have brought you a gift." He
clapped his hands, and two of his escort came forward bearing a heavy cedar chest bound in bronze and
gold. They set it at her feet. "Fifty thousand golden marks," Grazdan said smoothly. "Yours, as a gesture
of friendship from the Wise Masters of Yunkai. Gold given freely is better than plunder bought with
blood, surely? So I say to you, Daenerys Targaryen, take this chest, and go."
Dany pushed open the lid of the chest with a small slippered foot. It was full of gold coins, just as the
envoy said. She grabbed a handful and let them run through her fingers. They shone brightly as they
tumbled and fell; new minted, most of them, stamped with a stepped pyramid on one face and the harpy
of Ghis on the other. "Very pretty. I wonder how many chests like this I shall find when I take your city?"


He chuckled. "None, for that you shall never do."
"I have a gift for you as well." She slammed the chest shut. "Three days. On the morning of the third day,
send out your slaves. All of them. Every man, woman, and child shall be given a weapon, and as much
food, clothing, coin, and goods as he or she can carry. These they shall be allowed to choose freely from
among their masters' possessions, as payment for their years of servitude. When all the slaves have
departed, you will open your gates and allow my Unsullied to enter and search your city, to make certain
none remain in bondage. If you do this, Yunkai will not be burned or plundered, and none of your people
shall be molested. The Wise Masters will have the peace they desire, and will have proved themselves
wise indeed. What say you?"
"I say, you are mad."
"Am I?" Dany shrugged, and said, "Dracarys."
The dragons answered. Rhaegal hissed and smoked, Viserion snapped, and Drogon spat swirling
red-black flame. It touched the drape of Grazdan's tokar, and the silk caught in half a heartbeat. Golden
marks spilled across the carpets as the envoy stumbled over the chest, shouting curses and beating at his
arm until Whitebeard flung a flagon of water over him to douse the flames. "You swore I should have safe
conduct! " the Yunkish envoy wailed.
"Do all the Yunkai'i whine so over a singed tokar? I shall buy you a new one ... if you deliver up your
slaves within three days. Elsewise, Drogon shall give you a warmer kiss." She wrinkled her nose. "You've
soiled yourself. Take your gold and go, and see that the Wise Masters hear my message."
Grazdan mo Eraz pointed a finger. "You shall rue this arrogance, whore. These little lizards will not keep
you safe, I promise you. We will fill the
air with arrows if they come within a league of Yunkai. Do you think it is so hard to kill a dragon?"
"Harder than to kill a slaver. Three days, Grazdan. Tell them. By the end of the third day, I will be in
Yunkai, whether you open your gates for me or no."
Full dark had fallen by the time the Yunkai'i departed from her camp. It promised to be a gloomy night;
moonless, starless, with a chill wet wind blowing from the west. A fine black night, thought Dany. The
fires burned all around her, small orange stars strewn across hill and field. "Ser Jorah," she said, "summon
my bloodriders." Dany seated herself on a mound of cushions to await them, her dragons all about her.
When they were assembled, she said, "An hour past midnight should be time enough."
"Yes, Khaleesi," said Rakharo. "Time for what?"
"To mount our attack."
Ser Jorah Mormont scowled. "You told the sellswords -
"- that I wanted their answers on the morrow. I made no promises about tonight. The Stormcrows will
be arguing about my offer. The Second Sons will be drunk on the wine I gave Mero. And the Yunkai'i
believe they have three days. We will take them under cover of this darkness."
"They will have scouts watching for us."


"And in the dark, they will see hundreds of campfires burning," said Dany. "If they see anything at all."
"Khaleesi," said Jhogo, "I will deal with these scouts. They are no riders, only slavers on horses."
"Just so," she agreed. "I think we should attack from three sides. Grey Worm, your Unsullied shall strike
at them from right and left, while my kos lead my horse in wedge for a thrust through their center. Slave
soldiers will never stand before mounted Dothraki." She smiled. "To be sure, I am only a young girl and
know little of war. What do you think, my lords? "
"I think you are Rhaegar Targaryen's sister," Ser Jorah said with a rueful half smile.
"Aye," said Arstan Whitebeard, "and a queen as well."
It took an hour to work out all the details. Now begins the most dangerous time, Dany thought as her
captains departed to their commands. She could only pray that the gloom of the night would hide her
preparations from the foe.
Near midnight, she got a scare when Ser Jorah bulled his way past Strong Belwas. "The Unsullied
caught one of the sellswords trying to sneak into the camp."
"A spy?" That frightened her. If they'd caught one, how many others might have gotten away?
"He claims to come bearing gifts. it's the yellow fool with the blue hair."
Daario Naharis. "That one. I'll hear him, then."
When the exile knight delivered him, she asked herself whether two men had ever been so different. The
Tyroshi was fair where Ser Jorah was swarthy; lithe where the knight was brawny; graced with flowing
locks where the other was balding, yet smooth-skinned where Mormont was hairy. And her knight
dressed plainly while this other made a peacock look drab, though he had thrown a heavy black cloak
over his bright yellow finery for this visit. He carried a heavy canvas sack slung over one shoulder.
"Khaleesi," he cried, "I bring gifts and glad tidings. The Stormcrows are yours." A golden tooth gleamed
in his mouth when he smiled. "And so is Daario Naharis!"
Dany was dubious. If this Tyroshi had come to spy, this declaration might be no more than a desperate
plot to save his head. "What do Prendahl na Ghezn and Sallor say of this?"
"Little." Daario upended the sack, and the heads of Sallor the Bald and Prendahl na Ghezn spilled out
upon her carpets. "My gifts to the dragon queen."
Viserion sniffed the blood leaking from Prendahl's neck, and let loose a gout of flame that took the dead
man full in the face, blackening and blistering his bloodless cheeks. Drogon and Rhaegal stirred at the
smell of roasted meat.
"You did this?" Dany asked queasily.
"None other." If her dragons discomfited Daario Naharis, he hid it well. For all the mind he paid them,
they might have been three kittens playing with a mouse.


"Why?" "Because you are so beautiful." His hands were large and strong, and there was something in his
hard blue eyes and great curving nose that suggested the fierceness of some splendid bird of prey.
"Prendahl talked too much and said too little." His garb, rich as it was, had seen hard wear; salt stains
patterned his boots, the enamel of his nails was chipped, his lace was soiled by sweat, and she could see
where the end of his cloak was fraying. "And Sallor picked his nose as if his snot was gold." He stood
with his hands crossed at the wrists, his palms resting on the pornmels of his blades; a curving Dothraki
arakh on his left hip, a Myrish stiletto on his right. Their hilts were a matched pair of golden women,
naked and wanton.
"Are you skilled in the use of those handsome blades?" Dany asked him.
"Prendahl and Sallor would tell you so, if dead men could talk. I count
no day as lived unless I have loved a woman, slain a foeman, and eaten a fine meal ... and the days that I
have lived are as numberless as the stars in the sky. I make of slaughter a thing of beauty, and many a
tumbler and fire dancer has wept to the gods that they might be half so quick, a quarter so graceful. I
would tell you the names of all the men I have slain, but before I could finish your dragons would grow
large as castles, the walls of Yunkai would crumble into yellow dust, and winter would come and go and
come again."
Dany laughed. She liked the swagger she saw in this Daario Naharis. "Draw your sword and swear it to
my service."
In a blink, Daario's arakh was free of its sheath. His submission was as outrageous as the rest of him, a
great swoop that brought his face down to her toes. "My sword is yours. My life is yours. My love is
yours. My blood, my body, my songs, you own them all. I live and die at your command, fair queen."
"Then live," Dany said, "and fight for me tonight."
"That would not be wise, my queen." Ser Jorah gave Daario a cold, hard stare. "Keep this one here
under guard until the battle's fought and won."
She considered a moment, then shook her head. "If he can give us the Stormcrows, surprise is certain."
"And if he betrays you, surprise is lost."
Dany looked down at the sellsword again. He gave her such a smile that she flushed and turned away.
"He won't."
"How can you know that?"
She pointed to the lumps of blackened flesh the dragons were consuming, bite by bloody bite. "I would
call that proof of his sincerity. Daario Naharis, have your Stormcrows ready to strike the Yunkish rear
when my attack begins. Can you get back safely?"
"If they stop me, I will say I have been scouting, and saw nothing." The Tyroshi rose to his feet, bowed,
and swept out.
Ser Jorah Mormont lingered. "Your Grace," he said, too bluntly, "that was a mistake. We know nothing
of this man -


"We know that he is a great fighter."
"A great talker, you mean."
"He brings us the Stormcrows." And he has blue eyes.
"Five hundred sellswords of uncertain loyalty."
"All loyalties are uncertain in such times as these," Dany reminded him. And I shall be betrayed twice
more, once for gold and once for love.
"Dacnerys, I am thrice your age," Ser Jorah said. "I have seen how false men are. Very few are worthy
of trust, and Daario Naharis is not one of them. Even his beard wears false colors."
That angered her. "Whilst you have an honest beard, is that what you are telling me? You are the only
man I should ever trust?"
He stiffened. "I did not say that."
"You say it every day. Pyat Pree's a liar, Xaro's a schemer, Belwas a braggart, Arstan an assassin ... do
you think I'm still some virgin girl, that I cannot hear the words behind the words?"
"Your Grace - "
She bulled over him. "You have been a better friend to me than any I have known, a better brother than
Viserys ever was. You are the first of my Queensguard, the commander of my army, my most valued
counselor, my good right hand. I honor and respect and cherish you - but I do not desire you, Jorah
Mormont, and I am weary of your trying to push every other man in the world away from me, so I must
needs rely on you and you alone. It will not serve, and it will not make me love you any better."
Mormont had flushed red when she first began, but by the time Dany was done his face was pale again.
He stood still as stone. "If my queen commands," he said, curt and cold.
Dany was warm enough for both of them. "She does," she said. "She commands. Now go see to your
Unsullied, ser. You have a battle to fight and win."
When he was gone, Dany threw herself down on her pillows beside her dragons. She had not meant to
be so sharp with Ser Jorah, but his endless suspicion had finally woken her dragon.
He will forgive me, she told herself. I am his liege. Dany found herself wondering whether he was right
about Daario. She felt very lonely all of a sudden. Mirri Maz Duur had promised that she would never
bear a living child. House Targaryen will end with me. That made her sad. "You must be my children,"
she told the dragons, "my three fierce children. Arstan says dragons live longer than men, so you will go
on after I am dead."
Drogon looped his neck around to nip at her hand. His teeth were very sharp, but he never broke her
skin when they played like this. Dany laughed, and rolled him back and forth until he roared, his tail
lashing like a whip. It is longer than it was, she saw, and tomorrow it will be longer still. They grow
quickly now, and when they are grown I shall have my wings. Mounted on a dragon, she could lead her
own men into battle, as she had in Astapor, but as yet they were still too small to bear her weight.


A stillness settled over her camp when midnight came and went. Dany remained in her pavilion with her
maids, while Arstan Whitebeard and Strong Belwas kept the guard. The waiting is the hardest part. To
sit in her tent with idle hands while her battle was being fought without her made Dany feel half a child
again.
The hours crept by on turtle feet. Even after Jhiqui rubbed the knots
from her shoulders, Dany was too restless for sleep. Missandei offered to sing her a lullaby of the
Peaceful People, but Dany shook her head. "Bring me Arstan," she said.
When the old man came, she was curled up inside her hrakkar pelt, whose musty smell still reminded her
of Drogo. "I cannot sleep when men are dying for me, Whitebeard, " she said. "Tell me more of my
brother Rhaegar, if you would. I liked the tale you told me on the ship, of how he decided that he must
be a warrior."
"Your Grace is kind to say so."
"Viserys said that our brother won many tourneys."
Arstan bowed his white head respectfully. "It is not meet for me to deny His Grace's words..."
"But?" said Dany sharply. "Tell me. I command it."
"Prince Rhaegar's prowess was unquestioned, but he seldom entered the lists. He never loved the song
of swords the way that Robert did, or Jaime Lannister. It was something he had to do, a task the world
had set him. He did it well, for he did everything well. That was his nature. But he took no joy in it. Men
said that he loved his harp much better than his lance."
"He won some tourneys, surely," said Dany, disappointed.
"When he was young, His Grace rode brilliantly in a tourney at Storm's End, defeating Lord Steffon
Baratheon, Lord Jason Mallister, the Red Viper of Dome, and a mystery knight who proved to be the
infamous Simon Toyne, chief of the kingswood outlaws. He broke twelve lances against Ser Arthur
Dayne that day."
"Was he the champion, then?"
"No, Your Grace. That honor went to another knight of the Kingsguard, who unhorsed Prince Rhaegar
in the final tilt."
Dany did not want to hear about Rhaegar being unhorsed. "But what tourneys did my brother win?"
"Your Grace." The old man hesitated. "He won the greatest tourney of them all."
"Which was that?" Dany demanded.
"The tourney Lord Whent staged at Harrenhal beside the Gods Eye, in the year of the false spring. A
notable event. Besides the jousting, there was a melee in the old style fought between seven teams of
knights, as well as archery and axe-throwing, a horse race, a tournament of singers, a mummer show,
and many feasts and frolics. Lord Whent was as open handed as he was rich. The lavish purses he
proclaimed drew hundreds of challengers. Even your royal father came to Harrenhal, when he had not


left the Red Keep for long years. The greatest lords and mightiest champions of the Seven Kingdoms
rode in that tourney, and the Prince of Dragonstone bested them all."
"But that was the tourney when he crowned Lyanna Stark as queen of love and beauty!" said Dany.
"Princess Elia was there, his wife, and yet my brother gave the crown to the Stark girl, and later stole her
away from her betrothed. How could he do that? Did the Dornish woman treat him so ill?"
"It is not for such as me to say what might have been in your brother's heart, Your Grace. The Princess
Elia was a good and gracious lady, though her health was ever delicate."
Dany pulled the lion pelt tighter about her shoulders. "Viserys said once that it was my fault, for being
born too late." She had denied it hotly, she remembered, going so far as to tell Viserys that it was his fault
for not being born a girl. He beat her cruelly for that insolence. "If I had been born more timely, he said,
Rhaegar would have married me instead of Elia, and it would all have come out different. If Rhaegar had
been happy in his wife, he would not have needed the Stark girl."
"Perhaps so, Your Grace." Whitebeard paused a moment. "But I am not certain it was in Rhaegar to be
happy."
"You make him sound so sour," Dany protested.
"Not sour, no, but ... there was a melancholy to Prince Rhaegar, a sense . . . " The old man hesitated
again.
"Say it," she urged. "A sense ... ?"
". . . of doom. He was born in grief, my queen, and that shadow hung over him all his days."
Viserys had spoken of Rhaegar's birth only once. Perhaps the tale saddened him too much. "It was the
shadow of Surnmerhall that haunted him, was it not?"
"Yes. And yet Surnmerhall was the place the prince loved best. He would go there from time to time,
with only his harp for company. Even the knights of the Kingsguard did not attend him there. He liked to
sleep in the ruined hall, beneath the moon and stars, and whenever he came back he would bring a song.
When you heard him play his high harp with the silver strings and sing of twilights and tears and the death
of kings, you could not but feel that he was singing of himself and those he loved."
"What of the Usurper? Did he play sad songs as well?"
Arstan chuckled. "Robert? Robert liked songs that made him laugh, the bawdier the better. He only sang
when he was drunk, and then it was like to be 'A Cask of Ale' or 'Fifty-Four Tuns' or 'The Bear and the
Maiden Fair.' Robert was much - "
As one, her dragons lifted their heads and roared.
"Horses!" Dany leapt to her feet, clutching the lion pelt. Outside, she heard Strong Belwas bellow
something, and then other voices, and the sounds of many horses. "Irri, go see who.. . "
The tent flap pushed open, and Ser Jorah Mormont entered. He was
dusty, and spattered with blood, but otherwise none the worse for battle. The exile knight went to one


knee before Dany and said, "Your Grace, I bring you victory. The Stormcrows turned their cloaks, the
slaves broke, and the Second Sons were too drunk to fight, just as you said. Two hundred dead,
Yunkai'i for the most part. Their slaves threw down their spears and ran, and their sellswords yielded.
We have several thousand captives."
"Our own losses?"
"A dozen. If that many."
Only then did she allow herself to smile. "Rise, my good brave bear. Was Grazdan taken? Or the Titan's
Bastard?"
"Grazdan went to Yunkai to deliver your terms." Ser Jorah got to his feet. "Mero fled, once he realized
the Stormcrows had turned. I have men hunting him. He shouldn't escape us long."
"Very well," Dany said. "Sellsword or slave, spare all those who will pledge me their faith. If enough of
the Second Sons will join us, keep the company intact."
The next day they marched the last three leagues to Yunkai. The city was built of yellow bricks instead
of red; elsewise it was Astapor all over again, with the same crumbling walls and high stepped pyramids,
and a great harpy mounted above its gates. The wall and towers swarmed with crossbowmen and
slingers. Ser Jorah and Grey Worm deployed her men, Irri and Jhiqui raised her pavilion, and Dany sat
down to wait.
on the morning of the third day, the city gates swung open and a line of slaves began to emerge. Dany
mounted her silver to greet them. As they passed, little Missandei told them that they owed their freedom
to Daenerys Stormborn, the Unburnt, Queen of the Seven Kingdoms of Westeros and Mother of
Dragons.
"Mhysa!" a brown-skinned man shouted out at her. He had a child on his shoulder, a little girl, and she
screamed the same word in her thin voice. "Mhysa! Mhysa!"
Dany looked at Missandei. "What are they shouting?"
"It is Ghiscari, the old pure tongue. It means 'Mother."'
Dany felt a lightness in her chest. I will never bear a living child, she remembered. Her hand trembled as
she raised it. Perhaps she smiled. She must have, because the man grinned and shouted again, and others
took up the cry. "Mhysa!" they called. "Mhysa! MHYSA!" They were all smiling at her, reaching for her,
kneeling before her. "Maela," some called her while others cried "Aelalla" or "Qathei" or "Tato," but
whatever the tongue it all meant the same thing. Mother. They are calling me Mother.
The chant grew, spread, swelled. it swelled so loud that it frightened her horse, and the mare backed
and shook her head and lashed her silvergrey
tail. It swelled until it seemed to shake the yellow walls of Yunkai. More slaves were streaming
from the gates every moment, and as they came they took up the call. They were running toward her
now, pushing, stumbling, wanting to touch her hand, to stroke her horse's mane, to kiss her feet. Her
poor bloodriders could not keep them all away, and even Strong Belwas grunted and growled in dismay.
Ser Jorah urged her to go, but Dany remembered a dream she had dreamed in the House of the


Undying. "They will not hurt me," she told him. "They are my children, Jorah." She laughed, put her heels
into her horse, and rode to them, the bells in her hair ringing sweet victory. She trotted, then cantered,
then broke into a gallop, her braid streaming behind. The freed slaves parted before her. "Mother," they
called from a hundred throats, a thousand, ten thousand. "Mother," they sang, their fingers brushing her
legs as she flew by. "Mother, Mother, Mother!"
Chapter 43
ARYA
When Arya saw the shape of a great hill looming in the distance, golden in the afternoon sun, she knew it
at once. They had come all the way back to High Heart.
By sunset they were at the top, making camp where no harm could come to them. Arya walked around
the circle of weirwood stumps with Lord Beric's squire Ned, and they stood on top of one watching the
last light fade in the west. From up here she could see a storm raging to the north, but High Heart stood
above the rain. It wasn't above the wind, though; the gusts were blowing so strongly that it felt like
someone was behind her, yanking on her cloak. Only when she turned, no one was there.
Ghosts, she remembered. High Heart is haunted.
They built a great fire atop the hill, and Thoros of Myr sat crosslegged beside it, gazing deep into the
flames as if there was nothing else in all the world.
"What is he doing?" Arya asked Ned.
"Sometimes he sees things in the flames," the squire told her. "The past. The future. Things happening far
away."
Arya squinted at the fire to see if she could see what the red priest was seeing, but it only made her eyes
water and before long she turned away. Gendry was watching the red priest as well. "Can you truly see
the future there?" he asked suddenly.
Thoros turned from the fire, sighing. "Not here. Not now. But some days, yes, the Lord of Light grants
me visions."
Gendry looked dubious. "My master said you were a sot and a fraud, as bad a priest as there ever was."
"That was unkind." Thoros chuckled. "True, but unkind. Who was this master of yours? Did I know you,
boy?"
"I was 'prenticed to the master armorer Tobho Mott, on the Street of Steel. You used to buy your
swords from him."
"Just so. He charged me twice what they were worth, then scolded me for setting them afire." Thoros
laughed. "Your master had it right. I was no very holy priest. I was born youngest of eight, so my father
gave me over to the Red Temple, but it was not the path I would have chosen. I prayed the prayers and I


spoke the spells, but I would also lead raids on the kitchens, and from time to time they found girls in my
bed. Such wicked girls, I never knew how they got there.
"I had a gift for tongues, though. And when I gazed into the flames, well, from time to time I saw things.
Even so, I was more bother than I was worth, so they sent me finally to King's Landing to bring the
Lord's light to seven-besotted Westeros. King Aerys so loved fire it was thought he might make a
convert. Alas, his pyromancers knew better tricks than I did.
"King Robert was fond of me, though, The first time I rode into a melee with a flaming sword, Kevan
Lannister's horse reared and threw him and His Grace laughed so hard I thought he might rupture." The
red priest smiled at the memory. "It was no way to treat a blade, though, your master had the right of that
too."
"Fire consumes," Lord Beric stood behind them, and there was something in his voice that silenced
Thoros at once. "it consumes, and when it is done there is nothing left. Nothing."
"Beric. Sweet friend." The priest touched the lightning lord on the forearm. "What are you saying?"
"Nothing I have not said before. Six times, Thoros? Six times is too many." He turned away abruptly.
That night the wind was howling almost like a wolf and there were some real wolves off to the west
giving it lessons. Notch, Anguy, and Merrit oMoontown had the watch. Ned, Gendry, and many of the
others were fast asleep when Arya spied the small pale shape creeping behind the horses, thin white hair
flying wild as she leaned upon a gnarled cane. The woman could not have been more than three feet tall.
The firelight made her eyes gleam as red as the eyes of Jon's wolf. He was a ghost too. Arya stole closer,
and knelt to watch.
Thoros and Lem were with Lord Beric when the dwarf woman sat down uninvited by the fire. She
squinted at them with eyes like hot coals. "The Ember and the Lemon come to honor me again, and His
Grace the Lord of Corpses."
"An ill-omened name. I have asked you not to use it."
"Aye, you have. But the stink of death is fresh on you, my lord." She
had but a single tooth remaining. "Give me wine or I will go. My bones are old. My joints ache when the
winds do blow, and up here the winds are always blowing."
"A silver stag for your dreams, my lady," Lord Beric said, with solemn courtesy. "Another if you have
news for us."
"I cannot eat a silver stag, nor ride one. A skin of wine for my dreams, and for my news a kiss from the
great oaf in the yellow cloak." The little woman cackled. "Aye, a sloppy kiss, a bit of tongue. It has been
too long, too long. His mouth will taste of lemons, and mine of bones. I am too old."
"Aye," Lem complained. "Too old for wine and kisses. All you'll get from me is the flat of my sword,
crone."
"My hair comes out in handfuls and no one has kissed me for a thousand years. It is hard to be so old.
Well, I will have a song then. A song from Tom o' Sevens, for my news."


"You will have your song from Tom," Lord Beric promised. He gave her the wineskin himself.
The dwarf woman drank deep, the wine running down her chin. When she lowered the skin, she wiped
her mouth with the back of a wrinkled hand and said, "Sour wine for sour tidings, what could be more
fitting? The king is dead, is that sour enough for you?"
Arya's heart caught in her throat.
"Which bloody king is dead, crone?" Lem demanded.
,'The wet one. The kraken king, m'lords. I dreamt him dead and he died, and the iron squids now turn
on one another. Oh, and Lord Hoster Tully's died too, but you know that, don't you? In the hall of kings,
the goat sits alone and fevered as the great dog descends on him." The old woman took another long
gulp of wine, squeezing the skin as she raised it to her lips.
The great dog. Did she mean the Hound? Or maybe his brother, the Mountain That Rides? Arya was
not certain. They bore the same arms, three black dogs on a yellow field. Half the men whose deaths she
prayed for belonged to Ser Gregor Clegane; Polliver, Dunsen, Raff the Sweetling, the Tickler, and Ser
Gregor himself. Maybe Lord Beric will hang them all.
"I dreamt a wolf howling in the rain, but no one heard his grief," the dwarf woman was saying. "I dreamt
such a clangor I thought my head might burst, drums and horns and pipes and screams, but the saddest
sound was the little bells. I dreamt of a maid at a feast with purple serpents in her hair, venom dripping
from their fangs. And later I dreamt that maid again, slaying a savage giant in a castle built of snow." She
turned her head sharply and smiled through the gloom, right at Arya. "You cannot hide from me, child.
Come closer, now."
Cold fingers walked down Arya's neck. Fear cuts deeper than swords, she reminded herself. She stood
and approached the fire warily, light on the balls of her feet, poised to flee.
The dwarf woman studied her with dim red eyes. "I see you," she whispered. "I see you, wolf child.
Blood child. I thought it was the lord who smelled of death. . . " She began to sob, her little body
shaking. "You are cruel to come to my hill, cruel. I gorged on grief at Surnmerhall, I need none of yours.
Begone from here, dark heart. Begone!"
There was such fear in her voice that Arya took a step backward, wondering if the woman was mad.
"Don't frighten the child," Thoros protested. "There's no harm in her."
Lem Lemoncloak's finger went to his broken nose. "Don't be so bloody sure of that."
"She will leave on the morrow, with us," Lord Beric assured the little woman. "We're taking her to
Riverrun, to her mother."
"Nay," said the dwarf. "You're not. The black fish holds the rivers now. If it's the mother you want, seek
her at the Twins. For there's to be a wedding." She cackled again. "Look in your fires, pink priest, and
you will see. Not now, though, not here, you'll see nothing here. This place belongs to the old gods still ...
they linger here as I do, shrunken and feeble but not yet dead. Nor do they love the flames. For the oak
recalls the acorn, the acorn dreams the oak, the stump lives in them both. And they remember when the
First Men came with fire in their fists." She drank the last of the wine in four long swallows, flung the skin
aside, and pointed her stick at Lord Beric. "I'll have my payment now. I'll have the song you promised
me."


And so Lem woke Tom Sevenstrings beneath his furs, and brought him yawning to the fireside with his
woodharp in hand. "The same song as before?" he asked.
"Oh, aye. My jenny's song. Is there another?"
And so he sang, and the dwarf woman closed her eyes and rocked slowly back and forth, murmuring
the words and crying. Thoros took Arya firmly by the hand and drew her aside. "Let her savor her song
in peace," he said. "It is all she has left."
I wasn't going to hurt her, Arya thought. "What did she mean about the Twins? My mother's at Riverrun,
isn't she?"
"She was." The red priest rubbed beneath his chin. "A wedding, she said. We shall see. Whenever she
is, Lord Beric will find her, though."
Not long after, the sky opened. Lightning cracked and thunder rolled across the hills, and the rain fell in
blinding sheets. The dwarf woman vanished as suddenly as she had appeared, while the outlaws gathered
branches and threw up crude shelters.
It rained all through that night, and come morning Ned, Lem, and
Watty the Miller awoke with chills. Watty could not keep his breakfast down, and young Ned was
feverish and shivering by turns, with skin clammy to the touch. There was an abandoned village half a
day's ride to the north, Notch told Lord Beric; they'd find better shelter there, a place to wait out the
worst of the rains. So they dragged themselves back into the saddles and urged their horses down the
great hill.
The rains did not let up. They rode through woods and fields, fording swollen streams where the rushing
water came up to the bellies of their horses. Arya pulled up the hood of her cloak and hunched down,
sodden and shivering but determined not to falter. Merrit and Mudge were soon coughing as bad as
Watty, and poor Ned seemed to grow more miserable with every mile. "When I wear my helm, the rain
beats against the steel and gives me headaches," he complained. "But when I take it off, my hair gets
soaked and sticks to my face and in my mouth."
"You have a knife," Gendry suggested. "If your hair annoys you so much, shave your bloody head."
He doesn't like Ned. The squire seemed nice enough to Arya; maybe a little shy, but good-natured. She
had always heard that Dornishmen were small and swarthy, with black hair and small black eyes, but
Ned had big blue eyes, so dark that they looked almost purple. And his hair was a pale blond, more ash
than honey.
"How long have you been Lord Beric's squire?" she asked, to take his mind from his misery.
"He took me for his page when he espoused my aunt." He coughed. "I was seven, but when I turned ten
he raised me to squire. I won a prize once, riding at rings."
"I never learned the lance, but I could beat you with a sword," said Arya. "Have you killed anyone?"
That seemed to startle him. "I'm only twelve."


I killed a boy when I was eight, Arya almost said, but she thought she'd better not. "You've been in
battles, though."
"Yes." He did not sound very proud of it. "I was at the Mummer's Ford. When Lord Beric fell into the
river, I dragged him up onto the bank so he wouldn't drown and stood over him with my sword. I never
had to fight, though. He had a broken lance sticking out of him, so no one bothered us. When we
regrouped, Green Gergen helped pull his lordship back onto a horse."
Arya was remembering the stableboy at King's Landing. After him there'd been that guard whose throat
she cut at Harrenhal, and Ser Amory's men at that holdfast by the lake. She didn't know if Weese and
Chiswyck counted, or the ones who'd died on account of the weasel soup ... all of a sudden, she felt very
sad. "My father was called Ned too," she said.
"I know. I saw him at the Hand's tourney. I wanted to go up and speak with him, but I couldn't think
what to say." Ned shivered beneath his cloak, a sodden length of pale purple. "Were you at the tourney?
I saw your sister there. Ser Loras Tyrell gave her a rose."
"She told me." It all seemed so long ago. "Her friend Jeyne Poole fell in love with your Lord Beric."
"He's promised to my aunt." Ned looked uncomfortable. "That was before, though. Before he. . ."
... died? she thought, as Ned's voice trailed off into an awkward silence. Their horses' hooves made
sucking sounds as they pulled free of the mud.
"My lady?" Ned said at last. "You have a basebom brother ... Jon Snow? "
"He's with the Night's Watch on the Wall." Maybe I should go to the Wall instead of Riverrun. [on
wouldn't care who I killed or whether I brushed my hair... "Jon looks like me, even though he's
bastard-bom. He used to muss my hair and call me 'little sister."' Arya missed Jon most of all. just saying
his name made her sad. "How do you know about Jon? "
"He is my milk brother."
"Brother?" Arya did not understand. "But you're from Dome. How could you and Jon be blood?"
"Milk brothers. Not blood. My lady mother had no milk when I was little, so Wylla had to nurse me."
Arya was lost. "Who's Wylla?"
"Jon Snow's mother. He never told you? She's served us for years and years. Since before I was bom."
"Jon never knew his mother. Not even her name." Arya gave Ned a wary look. "You know her? Truly?"
Is he making mock of me? "if you lie I'll punch your face."
"Wylla was my wetnurse," he repeated solemnly. "I swear it on the honor of my House."
"You have a House?" That was stupid; he was a squire, of course he had a House. "Who are you?"
"My lady?" Ned looked embarrassed. "I'm Edric Dayne, the ... the Lord of Starfall."
Behind them, Gendry groaned. "Lords and ladies," he proclaimed in a disgusted tone. Arya plucked a


withered crabapple off a passing branch and whipped it at him, bouncing it off his thick bull head. "Ow,"
he said. "That hurt." He felt the skin above his eye. "What kind of lady throws crabapples at people?"
"The bad kind," said Arya, suddenly contrite. She turned back to Ned. "I'm sorry I didn't know who you
were. My lord."
"The fault is mine, my lady." He was very polite.
Ion has a mother. Wylla, her name is Wylla. She would need to remember so she could tell him, the next
time she saw him. She wondered if he would still call her "little sister." I'm not so little anymore. He'd
have to call me something else. Maybe once she got to Riverrun she could write Jon a letter and tell him
what Ned Dayne had said. "There was an Arthur Dayne," she remembered. "The one they called the
Sword of the Morning."
"My father was Ser Arthur's elder brother. Lady Ashara was my aunt. I never knew her, though. She
threw herself into the sea from atop the Palestone Sword before I was born."
"Why would she do that?" said Arya, startled.
Ned looked wary. Maybe he was afraid that she was going to throw something at him. "Your lord father
never spoke of her?" he said. "The Lady Ashara Dayne, of Starfall?"
"No. Did he know her?"
"Before Robert was king. She met your father and his brothers at Harrenhal, during the year of the false
spring."
"Oh." Arya did not know what else to say. "Why did she jump in the sea, though? "
"Her heart was broken."
Sansa would have sighed and shed a tear for true love, but Arya just thought it was stupid. She couldn't
say that to Ned, though, not about his own aunt. "Did someone break it?"
He hesitated. "Perhaps it's not my place. .
"Tell me."
He looked at her uncomfortably. "My aunt Allyria says Lady Ashara and your father fell in love at
Harrenhal - "
"That's not so. He loved my lady mother."
"I'm sure he did, my lady, but - "
"She was the only one he loved."
"He must have found that bastard under a cabbage leaf, then," Gendry said behind them.
Arya wished she had another crabapple to bounce off his face. "My father had honor," she said angrily.
"And we weren't talking to you anyway. Why don't you go back to Stoney Sept and ring that girl's stupid


bells? "
Gendry ignored that. "At least your father raised his bastard, not like mine. I don't even know my father's
name. Some smelly drunk, I'd wager, like the others my mother dragged home from the alehouse.
Whenever she got mad at me, she'd say, 'If your father was here, he'd beat you bloody.' That's all I
know of him." He spat. "Well, if he was here now, might be I'd beat him bloody. But he's dead, I figure,
and your father's dead too, so what does it matter who he lay with?"
It mattered to Arya, though she could not have said why. Ned was trying to apologize for upsetting her,
but she did not want to hear it. She pressed her heels into her horse and left them both. Anguy the Archer
was riding a few yards ahead. When she caught up with him, she said, "Dornishmen lie, don't they?"
"They're famous for it." The bowman grinned. "Of course, they say the same of us marchers, so there
you are. What's the trouble now? Ned's a good lad..."
"He's just a stupid liar." Arya left the trail, leapt a rotten log and splashed across a streambed, ignoring
the shouts of the outlaws behind her. They just want to tell me more lies. She thought about trying to get
away from them, but there were too many and they knew these lands too well. What was the use of
running if they caught you?
It was Harwin who rode up beside her, in the end. "Where do you think you're going, milady? You
shouldn't run off. There are wolves in these woods, and worse things."
"I'm not afraid," she said. "That boy Ned said..."
"Aye, he told me. Lady Ashara Dayne. It's an old tale, that one. I heard it once at Winterfell, when I was
no older than you are now." He took hold of her bridle firmly and turned her horse around. "I doubt
there's any truth to it. But if there is, what of it? When Ned met this Dornish lady, his brother Brandon
was still alive, and it was him betrothed to Lady Catelyn, so there's no stain on your father's honor.
There's nought like a tourney to make the blood run hot, so maybe some words were whispered in a tent
of a night, who can say? Words or kisses, maybe more, but where's the harm in that? Spring had come,
or so they thought, and neither one of them was pledged."
"She killed herself, though," said Arya uncertainly. "Ned says she jumped from a tower into the sea."
"So she did," Harwin admitted, as he led her back, "but that was for grief, I'd wager. She'd lost a
brother, the Sword of the Morning." He shook his head. "Let it lie, my lady. They're dead, all of them.
Let it lie ... and please, when we come to Riverrun, say naught of this to your mother."
The village was just where Notch had promised it would be. They took shelter in a grey stone stable.
Only half a roof remained, but that was half a roof more than any other building in the village. It's not a
village, it's only black stones and old bones. "Did the Lannisters kill the people who lived here?" Arya
asked as she helped Anguy dry the horses.
"No." He pointed. "Look at how thick the moss grows on the stones. No one's moved them for a long
time. And there's a tree growing out of the wall there, see? This place was put to the torch a long time
ago."
"Who did it, then?" asked Gendry.
"Hoster Tully." Notch was a stooped thin grey-haired man, born in these parts. "This was Lord


Goodbrook's village. When Riverrun declared for Robert, Goodbrook stayed loyal to the king, so Lord
Tully came down on him with fire and sword. After the Trident, Goodbrook's son made his peace with
Robert and Lord Hoster, but that didn't help the dead none."
A silence fell. Gendry gave Arya a queer look, then turned away to brush his horse. Outside the rain
came down and down. "I say we need a fire," Thoros declared. "The night is dark and full of terrors. And
wet too, eh? Too very wet."
Jack-Be-Lucky hacked some dry wood from a stall, while Notch and Merrit gathered straw for
kindling. Thoros himself struck the spark, and Lem fanned the flames with his big yellow cloak until they
roared and swirled. Soon it grew almost hot inside the stable. Thoros sat before it crosslegged, devouring
the flames with his eyes just as he had atop High Heart. Arya watched him closely, and once his lips
moved, and she thought she heard him mutter, "Riverrun." Lem paced back and forth, coughing, a long
shadow matching him stride for stride, while Tom o' Sevens pulled off his boots and rubbed his feet. "I
must be mad, to be going back to Riverrun," the singer complained. "The Tullys have never been lucky
for old Tom. It was that Lysa sent me up the high road, when the moon men took my gold and my horse
and all my clothes as well. There's knights in the Vale still telling how I came walking up to the Bloody
Gate with only my harp to keep me modest. They made me sing 'The Name Day Boy'andThe King
Without Courage'before they opened that gate. My only solace was that three of them died laughing. I
haven't been back to the Eyrie since, and I won't sing'The King Without Courage' either, not for all the
gold in Casterly - "
"Lannisters," Thoros said. "Roaring red and gold." He lurched to his feet and went to Lord Beric. Lem
and Tom wasted no time joining them. Arya could not make out what they were saying, but the singer
kept glancing at her, and one time Lem got so angry he pounded a fist against the wall. That was when
Lord Beric gestured for her to come closer. It was the last thing she wanted to do, but Harwin put a hand
in the small of her back and pushed her forward. She took two steps and hesitated, full of dread. "My
lord." She waited to hear what Lord Beric would say.
"Tell her," the lightning lord commanded Thoros.
The red priest squatted down beside her. "My lady," he said, "the Lord granted me a view of Riverrun.
An island in a sea of fire, it seemed. The flames were leaping lions with long crimson claws. And how
they roared! A sea of Lannisters, my lady. Riverrun will soon come under attack. "
Arya felt as though he'd punched her in the belly. "No!"
"Sweetling," said Thoros, "the flames do not lie. Sometimes I read them wrongly, blind fool that I am.
But not this time, I think. The Lannisters will soon have Riverrun under siege."
"Robb will beat them." Arya got a stubborn look. "He'll beat them like he did before."
"Your brother may be gone," said Thoros. "Your mother as well. I did not see them in the flames. This
wedding the old one spoke of, a wedding on the Twins ... she has her own ways of knowing things, that
one. The weirwoods whisper in her ear when she sleeps. If she says your mother is gone to the Twins . .
. "
Arya turned on Tom and Lem. "If you hadn't caught me, I would have been there. I would have been
home."
Lord Beric paid no heed to her outburst. "My lady," he said with weary courtesy, "would you know


your grandfather's brother by sight? Ser Brynden Tully, called the Blackfish? Would he know you,
perchance?"
Arya shook her head miserably. She had heard her mother speak of Ser Brynden Blackfish, but if she
had ever met him herself it had been when she was too little to remember.
"Small chance the Blackfish will pay good coin for a girl he doesn't know," said Tom. "Those Tullys are
a sour, suspicious lot, he's like to think we're selling him false goods."
"We'll convince him," Lem Lemoncloak insisted. "She will, or Harwin. Riverrun is closest. I say we take
her there, get the gold, and be bloody well done with her."
"And if the lions catch us inside the castle?" said Tom. "They'd like nothing better than to hang his
lordship in a cage from the top of Casterly Rock."
"I do not mean to be taken," said Lord Beric. A final word hung unspoken in the air. Alive. They all
heard it, even Arya, though it never passed his lips. "Still, we dare not go blindly here. I want to know
where the armies are, the wolves and lions both. Shama will know something, and Lord Vance's maester
will know more. Acorn Hall's not far. Lady Smallwood will shelter us for a time while we send scouts
ahead to learn. . . "
His words beat at her ears like the pounding of a drum, and suddenly it was more than Arya could
stand. She wanted Riverrun, not Acorn Hall; she wanted her mother and her brother Robb, not Lady
Smallwood or some uncle she never knew. Whirling, she broke for the door, and when Harwin tried to
grab her arm she spun away from him quick as a snake.
Outside the stables the rain was still falling, and distant lightning flashed in the west. Arya ran as fast as
she could. She did not know where she was going, only that she wanted to be alone, away from all the
voices, away from their hollow words and broken promises. All I wanted was
to go to Riverrun. It was her own fault, for taking Gendry and Hot Pie with her when she left Harrenhal.
She would have been better alone. If she had been alone, the outlaws would never have caught her, and
she'd be with Robb and her mother by now. They were never my pack. ff they had been, they wouldn't
leave me. She splashed through a puddle of muddy water. Someone was shouting her name, Harwin
probably, or Gendry, but the thunder drowned them out as it rolled across the hills, half a heartbeat
behind the lightning. The lightning lord, she thought angrily. Maybe he couldn't die, but he could lie.
Somewhere off to her left a horse whinnied. Arya couldn't have gone more than fifty yards from the
stables, yet already she was soaked to the bone. She ducked around the corner of one of the
tumbledown houses, hoping the mossy walls would keep the rain off, and almost bowled right into one of
the sentries. A mailed hand closed hard around her arm.
"You're hurting me," she said, twisting in his grasp. "Let go, I was going to go back, I . . . "
"Back?" Sandor Clegane's laughter was iron scraping over stone. "Bugger that, wolf girl. You're mine."
He needed only one hand to yank her off her feet and drag her kicking toward his waiting horse. The
cold rain lashed them both and washed away her shouts, and all that Arya could think of was the
question he had asked her. Do you know what dogs do to wolves?


Chapter 44
JAIME
Though his fever lingered stubbornly, the stump was healing clean, and Qybum said his arm was no
longer in danger. Jaime was anxious to be gone, to put Harrenhal, the Bloody Mummers, and Brienne of
Tarth all behind him. A real woman waited for him in the Red Keep.
"I am sending Qybum with you, to look after you on the way to King's Landing," Roose Bolton said on
the mom of their departure. "He has a fond hope that your father will force the Citadel to give him back
his chain, in gratitude."
"We all have fond hopes. If he grows me back a hand, my father will make him Grand Maester."
Steelshanks Walton commanded Jaime's escort; blunt, brusque, brutal, at heart a simple soldier. Jaime
had served with his sort all his life. Men like Walton would kill at their lord's command, rape when their
blood was up after battle, and plunder wherever they could, but once the war was done they would go
back to their homes, trade their spears for hoes, wed their neighbors' daughters, and raise a pack of
squalling children. Such men obeyed without question, but the deep malignant cruelty of the Brave
Companions was not a part of their nature.
Both parties left Harrenhal the same morning, beneath a cold grey sky that promised rain. Ser Aenys
Frey had marched three days before, striking northeast for the kingsroad. Bolton meant to follow him.
"The Trident is in flood," he told Jaime. "Even at the ruby ford, the crossing will be difficult. You will give
my warm regards to your father?"
"So long as you give mine to Robb Stark."
"That I shall."
Some Brave Companions had gathered in the yard to watch them leave. Jaime trotted over to where
they stood. "Zollo. How kind of you to see me off. Pyg. Timeon. Will you miss me? No last jest to share,
Shagwell? To lighten my way down the road? And Rorge, did you come to kiss me goodbye?"
"Bugger off, cripple," said Rorge.
"If you insist. Rest assured, though, I will be back. A Lannister always pays his debts." Jaime wheeled
his horse around and rejoined Steelshanks Walton and his two hundred.
Lord Bolton had accoutred him as a knight, preferring to ignore the missing hand that made such warlike
garb a travesty. Jaime rode with sword and dagger on his belt, shield and helm hung from his saddle,
chainmail under a dark brown surcoat. He was not such a fool as to show the lion of Lannister on his
arms, though, nor the plain white blazon that was his right as a Sworn Brother of the Kingsguard. He
found an old shield in the armory, battered and splintered, the chipped paint still showing most of the
great black bat of House Lothston upon a field of silver and gold. The Lothstons held Harrenhal before
the Whents and had been a powerful family in their day, but they had died out ages ago, so no one was
likely to object to him bearing their arms. He would be no one's cousin, no one's enemy, no one's sworn
sword ... in sum, no one.


They left through Harrenhal's smaller eastern gate, and took their leave of Roose Bolton and his host six
miles farther on, turning south to follow along the lake road for a time. Walton meant to avoid the
kingsroad as long as he could, preferring the farmer's tracks and game trails near the Gods Eye.
"The kingsroad would be faster." Jaime was anxious to return to Cersei as quickly as he could. if they
made haste, he might even arrive in time for Joffrey's wedding.
"I want no trouble," said Steelshanks. "Gods know who we'd meet along that kingsroad."
"No one you need fear, surely? You have two hundred men."
"Aye. But others might have more. M'lord said to bring you safe to your lord father, and that's what I
mean to do."
I have come this way before, Jaime reflected a few miles further on, when they passed a deserted mill
beside the lake. Weeds now grew where once the miller's daughter had smiled shyly at him, and the
miller himself had shouted out, "The tourney's back the other way, ser." As if I had not known.
King Aerys made a great show of Jaime's investiture. He said his vows before the king's pavilion,
kneeling on the green grass in white armor while half the realm looked on. When Ser Gerold Hightower
raised him
up and put the white cloak about his shoulders, a roar went up that Jaime still remembered, all these
years later. But that very night Aerys had turned sour, declaring that he had no need of seven Kingsguard
here at Harrenhal. Jaime was commanded to return to King's Landing to guard the queen and little Prince
Viserys, who'd remained behind. Even when the White Bull offered to take that duty himself, so Jaime
might compete in Lord Whent's tourney, Aerys had refused. "He'll win no glory here," the king had said.
"He's mine now, not Tywin's. He'll serve as I see fit. I am the king. I rule, and he'll obey."
That was the first time that Jaime understood. It was not his skill with sword and lance that had won him
his white cloak, nor any feats of valor he'd performed against the Kingswood Brotherhood. Aerys had
chosen him to spite his father, to rob Lord Tywin of his heir.
Even now, all these years later, the thought was bitter. And that day, as he'd ridden south in his new
white cloak to guard an empty castle, it had been almost too much to stomach. He would have ripped the
cloak off then and there if he could have, but it was too late. He had said the words whilst half the realm
looked on, and a Kingsguard served for life.
Qyburn fell in beside him. "Is your hand troubling you?"
"The lack of my hand is troubling me. " The mornings were the hardest. In his dreams Jaime was a whole
man, and each dawn he would lie half-awake and feel his fingers move. It was a nightmare, some part of
him would whisper, refusing to believe even now, only a nightmare. But then he would open his eyes.
"I understand you had a visitor last night," said Qyburn. "I trust that you enjoyed her?"
Jaime gave him a cool look. "She did not say who sent her."
The maester smiled modestly. "Your fever was largely gone, and I thought you might enjoy a bit of
exercise. Pia is quite skilled, would you not agree? And so ... willing."


She had been that, certainly. She had slipped in his door and out of her clothes so quickly that Jaime had
thought he was still dreaming.
It hadn't been until the woman slid in under his blankets and put his good hand on her breast that he
roused. She was a pretty little thing, too. "I was a slip of a girl when you came for Lord Whent's tourney
and the king gave you your cloak," she confessed. "You were so handsome all in white, and everyone
said what a brave knight you were. Sometimes when I'm with some man, I close my eyes and pretend it's
you on top of me, with your smooth skin and gold curls. I never truly thought I'd have you, though."
Sending her away had not been easy after that, but Jaime had done it all the same. I have a woman, he
reminded himself. "Do you send girls to everyone you leech?" he asked Qyburn.
"More often Lord Vargo sends them to me. He likes me to examine them, before ... well, suffice it to say
that once he loved unwisely, and he has no wish to do so again. But have no fear, Pia is quite healthy. As
is your maid of Tarth."
Jaime gave him a sharp look. "Brienne?"
"Yes. A strong girl, that one. And her maidenhead is still intact. As of last night, at least." Qyburn gave a
chuckle.
"He sent you to examine her?"
"To be sure. He is ... fastidious, shall we say?"
"Does this concern the ransom?" Jaime asked. "Does her father require proof she is still maiden?"
"You have not heard?" Qyburn gave a shrug. "We had a bird from Lord Selwyn. In answer to mine. The
Evenstar offers three hundred dragons for his daughter's safe return. I had told Lord Vargo there were no
sapphires on Tarth, but he will not listen. He is convinced the Evenstar intends to cheat him."
"Three hundred dragons is a fair ransom for a knight. The goat should take what he can get."
"The goat is Lord of Harrenhal, and the Lord of Harrenhal does not haggle."
The news irritated him, though he supposed he should have seen it coming. The lie spared you awhile,
wench. Be grateful for that much. "If her maidenhead's as hard as the rest of her, the goat will break his
cock off trying to get in," he jested. Brienne was tough enough to survive a few rapes, Jaime judged,
though if she resisted too vigorously Vargo Hoat might start lopping off her hands and feet. And if he
does, why should I care? I might still have a hand if she had let me have my cousin's sword without
getting stupid. He had almost taken off her leg himself with that first stroke of his, but after that she had
given him more than he wanted. Hoat may not know how freakish strong she is. He had best be careful,
or she'll snap that skinny neck of his, and wouldn't that be sweet?
Qybum's companionship was wearing on him. Jaime trotted toward the head of the column. A round
little tick of a northman name of Nage went before Steelshanks with the peace banner; a rainbow-striped
flag with seven long tails, on a staff topped by a seven-pointed star. "Shouldn't you northmen have a
different sort of peace banner?" he asked Walton. "What are the Seven to you?"
"Southron gods," the man said, "but it's a southron peace we need, to get you safe to your father."


My father. Jaime wondered whether Lord Tywin had received the goat's demand for ransom, with or
without his rotted hand. What is a swordsman worth without his sword hand? Half the gold in Casterly
Rock?
Three hundred dragons? Or nothing? His father had never been unduly swayed by sentiment. Tywin
Lannister's own father Lord Tytos had once imprisoned an unruly bannerman, Lord Tarbeck. The
redoubtable Lady Tarbeck responded by capturing three Lannisters, including young Stafford, whose
sister was betrothed to cousin Tywin. "Send back my lord and love, or these three shall answer for any
harm that comes him," she had written to Casterly Rock. Young Tywin suggested his father oblige by
sending back Lord Tarbeck in three pieces. Lord Tytos was a gentler sort of lion, however, so Lady
Tarbeck won a few more years for her muttonheaded lord, and Stafford wed and bred and blundered on
till Oxcross. But Tywin Lannister endured, eternal as Casterly Rock. And now you have a cripple for a
son as well as a dwarf, my lord. How you will hate that ...
The road led them through a burned village. It must have been a year or more since the place had been
put to torch. The hovels stood blackened and roofless, but weeds were growing waist high in all the
surrounding fields. Steelshanks called a halt to allow them to water the horses. I know this place too,
Jaime thought as he waited by the well. There had been a small inn where only a few foundation stones
and a chimney now stood, and he had gone in for a cup of ale. A dark-eyed serving wench brought him
cheese and apples, but the innkeep had refused his coin. "It's an honor to have a knight of the Kingsguard
under my roof, ser," the man had said. "It's a tale I'll tell my grandchildren." Jaime looked at the chimney
poking out of the weeds and wondered whether he had ever gotten those grandchildren. Did he tell them
the Kingslayer once drank his ale and ate his cheese and apples, or was he ashamed to admit he fed the
likes of me? Not that he would ever know; whoever burned the inn had likely killed the grandchildren as
well.
He could feel his phantom fingers clench. When Steelshanks said that perhaps they should have a fire
and a bit of food, Jaime shook his head. "I mislike this place. We'll ride on."
By evenfall they had left the lake to follow a rutted track through a wood of oak and elm. Jaime's stump
was throbbing dully when Steelshanks decided to make camp. Qyburn had brought a skin of dreamwine,
thankfully. While Walton set the watches, Jaime stretched out near the fire and propped a rolled-up
bearskin against a stump as a pillow for his head. The wench would have told him he had to eat before he
slept, to keep his strength up, but he was more tired than hungry. He closed his eyes, and hoped to
dream of Cersei. The fever dreams were all so vivid ...
Naked and alone he stood, surrounded by enemies, with stone walls all around him pressing close. The
Rock, he knew. He could feel the immense weight of it above his head. He was home. He was home and
whole.
He held his right hand up and flexed his fingers to feel the strength in them. it felt as good as sex. As
good as swordplay. Four fingers and a thumb. He had dreamed that he was maimed, but it wasn't so.
Relief made him dizzy. My hand, my good hand. Nothing could hurt him so long as he was whole.
Around him stood a dozen tall dark figures in cowled robes that hid their faces. In their hands were
spears. "Who are you?" he demanded of them. "What business do you have in Casterly Rock?"
They gave no answer, only prodded him with the points of their spears. He had no choice but to
descend. Down a twisting passageway he went, narrow steps carved from the living rock, down and
down. I must go up, he told himself. Up, not down. Why am I going down? Below the earth his doom
awaited, he knew with the certainty of dream; something dark and terrible lurked there, something that


wanted him. Jaime tried to halt, but their spears prodded him on. ff only I had my sword, nothing could
harm me.
The steps ended abruptly on echoing darkness. Jaime had the sense of vast space before him. He jerked
to a halt, teetering on the edge of nothingness. A spearpoint jabbed at the small of the back, shoving him
into the abyss. He shouted, but the fall was short. He landed on his hands and knees, upon soft sand and
shallow water. There were watery caverns deep below Casterly Rock, but this one was strange to him.
"What place is this? "
"Your place." The voice echoed; it was a hundred voices, a thousand, the voices of all the Lannisters
since Lann the Clever, who'd lived at the dawn of days. But most of all it was his father's voice, and
beside Lord Tywin stood his sister, pale and beautiful, a torch burning in her hand. Joffrey was there as
well, the son they'd made together, and behind them a dozen more dark shapes with golden hair.
"Sister, why has Father brought us here?"
"Us? This is your place, Brother. This is your darkness." Her torch was the only light in the cavern. Her
torch was the only light in the world. She turned to go.
"Stay with me," Jaime pleaded. "Don't leave me here alone." But they were leaving. "Don't leave me in
the dark!" Something terrible lived down here. "Give me a sword, at least."
"I gave you a sword," Lord Tywin said.
It was at his feet. Jaime groped under the water until his hand closed upon the hilt. Nothing can hurt me
so long as I have a sword. As he raised the sword a finger of pale flame flickered at the point and crept
up along the edge, stopping a hand's breath from the hilt. The fire took on the color of the steel itself so it
burned with a silvery-blue light, and the gloom pulled back. Crouching, listening, Jaime moved in a circle,
ready for anything that might come out of the darkness. The water flowed into his boots, ankle deep and
bitterly cold. Beware the water, he told himself. There may be creatures living in it, hidden deeps ...
From behind came a great splash. Jaime whirled toward the sound... but the faint light revealed only
Brienne of Tarth, her hands bound in heavy chains. "I swore to keep you safe," the wench said
stubbornly. "I swore an oath." Naked, she raised her hands to Jaime. "Ser. Please. If you would be so
good."
The steel links parted like silk. "A sword," Brienne begged, and there it was, scabbard, belt, and all. She
buckled it around her thick waist. The light was so dim that Jaime could scarcely see her, though they
stood a scant few feet apart. In this light she could almost be a beauty, he thought. in this light she could
almost be a knight. Brienne's sword took flame as well, burning silvery blue. The darkness retreated a
little more.
"The flames will bum so long as you live," he heard Cersei call. "When they die, so must you."
"Sister!" he shouted. "Stay with me. Stay!" There was no reply but the soft sound of retreating footsteps.
Brienne moved her longsword back and forth, watching the silvery flames shift and shimmer. Beneath
her feet, a reflection of the burning blade shone on the surface of the flat black water. She was as tall and
strong as he remembered, yet it seemed to Jaime that she had more of a woman's shape now.


"Do they keep a bear down here?" Brienne was moving, slow and wary, sword to hand; step, turn, and
listen. Each step made a little splash. "A cave lion? Direwolves? Some bear? Tell me, Jaime. What lives
here? What lives in the darkness?"
"Doom." No bear, he knew. No lion. "Only doom."
In the cool silvery-blue light of the swords, the big wench looked pale and fierce. "I mislike this place."
"I'm not fond of it myself." Their blades made a little island of light, but all around them stretched a sea of
darkness, unending. "My feet are wet."
"We could go back the way they brought us. if you climbed on my shoulders you'd have no trouble
reaching that tunnel mouth."
Then I could follow Cersei. He could feel himself growing hard at the thought, and turned away so
Brienne would not see.
"Listen." She put a hand on his shoulder, and he trembled at the sudden touch. She's warm. "Something
comes." Brienne lifted her sword to point off to his left. "There,"
He peered into the gloom until he saw it too. Something was moving through the darkness, he could not
quite make it out ...
"A man on a horse. No, two. Two riders, side by side."
"Down here, beneath the Rock?" It made no sense. Yet there came two riders on pale horses, men and
mounts both armored. The destriers emerged from the blackness at a slow walk. They make no sound,
Jaime realized. No splashing, no clink of mail nor clop of hoof. He remembered Eddard Stark, riding the
length of Aerys's throne room wrapped in silence. Only his eyes had spoken; a lord's eyes, cold and grey
and full of judgment.
"Is it you, Stark?" Jaime called. "Come ahead. I never feared you living, I do not fear you dead."
Brienne touched his arm. "There are more."
He saw them too. They were armored all in snow, it seemed to him, and ribbons of mist swirled back
from their shoulders. The visors of their helms were closed, but Jaime Lannister did not need to look
upon their faces to know them.
Five had been his brothers. Oswell Whent and Jon Darry. Lewyn Martell, a prince of Dome. The White
Bull, Gerold Hightower. Ser Arthur Dayne, Sword of the Morning. And beside them, crowned in mist
and grief with his long hair streaming behind him, rode Rhaegar Targaryen, Prince of Dragonstone and
rightful heir to the Iron Throne.
"You don't frighten me," he called, turning as they split to either side of him. He did not know which way
to face. "I will fight you one by one or all together. But who is there for the wench to duel? She gets cross
when you leave her out."
"I swore an oath to keep him safe," she said to Rhaegar's shade. "I swore a holy oath."
"We all swore oaths," said Ser Arthur Dayne, so sadly.


The shades dismounted from their ghostly horses. When they drew their longswords, it made not a
sound. "He was going to bum the city," Jaime said. "To leave Robert only ashes."
"He was your king," said Darry.
"You swore to keep him safe," said Whent.
"And the children, them as well," said Prince Lewyn.
Prince Rhaegar burned with a cold light, now white, now red, now dark. "I left my wife and children in
your hands."
"I never thought he'd hurt them." Jaime's sword was burning less brightly now. "I was with the king. . .
"Killing the king," said Ser Arthur.
"Cutting his throat," said Prince Lewyn.
"The king you had sworn to die for," said the White Bull.
The fires that ran along the blade were guttering out, and Jaime remembered what Cersei had said. No.
Terror closed a hand about his throat. Then his sword went dark, and only Brienne's burned, as the
ghosts came rushing in.
"No," he said, "no, no, no. Nooooooooo!"
Heart pounding, he jerked awake, and found himself in starry darkness amidst a grove of trees. He
could taste bile in his mouth, and he was shivering with sweat, hot and cold at once. When he looked
down for his sword hand, his wrist ended in leather and linen, wrapped snug around an ugly stump. He
felt sudden tears well up in his eyes. I felt it, I felt the strength in my fingers, and the rough leather of the
sword's grip. My hand. . .
"My lord." Qyburn knelt beside him, his fatherly face all crinkly with concern. "What is it? I heard you
cry out."
Steelshanks Walton stood above them, tall and dour. "What is it? Why did you scream?"
"A dream ... only a dream." Jaime stared at the camp around him, lost for a moment. "I was in the dark,
but I had my hand back." He looked at the stump and felt sick all over again. There's no place like that
beneath the Rock, he thought. His stomach was sour and empty, and his head was pounding where he'd
pillowed it against the stump.
Qyburn felt his brow. "You still have a touch of fever."
"A fever dream." Jaime reached up. "Help me." Steelshanks took him by his good hand and pulled him
to his feet.
"Another cup of dreamwine?" asked Qyburn.
"No. I've dreamt enough this night." He wondered how long it was till dawn. Somehow he knew that if


he closed his eyes, he would be back in that dark wet place again.
"Milk of the poppy, then? And something for your fever? You are still weak, my lord. You need to
sleep. To rest."
That is the last thing I mean to do. The moonlight glimmered pale upon the stump where Jaime had
rested his head. The moss covered it so thickly he had not noticed before, but now he saw that the wood
was white. It made him think of Winterfell, and Ned Stark's heart tree. It was not him, he thought. It was
never him. But the stump was dead and so was Stark and so were all the others, Prince Rhaegar and Ser
Arthur and the children. And Aerys. Aerys is most dead of all. "Do you believe in ghosts, Maester?" he
asked Qyburn.
The man's face grew strange. "Once, at the Citadel, I came into an empty room and saw an empty chair.
Yet I knew a woman had been there, only a moment before. The cushion was dented where she'd sat,
the cloth was still warm, and her scent lingered in the air. If we leave our smells behind us when we leave
a room, surely something of our souls must remain when we leave this life?" Qyburn spread his hands.
"The archmaesters did not like my thinking, though. Well, Marwyn did, but he was the only one."
Jaime ran his fingers through his hair. "Walton," he said, "saddle the horses. I want to go back."
"Back?" Steelshanks regarded him dubiously.
He thinks I've gone mad. And perhaps I have. "I left something at Harrenhal."
"Lord Vargo holds it now. Him and his Bloody Mummers."
"You have twice the men he does."
"If I don't serve you up to your father as commanded, Lord Bolton will have my hide. We press on to
King's Landing."
Once Jaime might have countered with a smile and a threat, but onehanded cripples do not inspire much
fear. He wondered what his brother would do. Tyrion would find a way. "Lannisters lie, Steelshanks.
Didn't Lord Bolton tell you that?"
The man frowned suspiciously. "What if he did?"
"Unless you take me back to Harrenhal, the song I sing my father may not be one the Lord of the
Dreadfort would wish to hear. I might even say it was Bolton ordered my hand cut off, and Steelshanks
Walton who swung the blade."
Walton gaped at him. "That isn't so."
"No, but who will my father believe?" Jaime made himself smile, the way he used to smile when nothing
in the world could frighten him. "It will be so much easier if we just go back. We'd be on our way again
soon enough, and I'd sing such a sweet song in King's Landing you'll never believe your ears. You'd get
the girl, and a nice fat purse of gold as thanks."
"Gold?" Walton liked that well enough. "How much gold?"
I have him. "Why, how much would you want?"


And by the time the sun came up, they were halfway back to Harrenhal.
Jaime pushed his horse much harder than he had the day before, and Steelshanks and the northmen
were forced to match his pace. Even so, it was midday before they reached the castle on the lake.
Beneath a darkening sky that threatened rain, the immense walls and five great towers stood black and
ominous. It looks so dead. The walls were empty, the gates closed and barred. But high above the
barbican, a single banner hung limp. The black goat of Qohor, he knew. Jaime cupped his hands to
shout. "You in there! Open your gates, or I'll kick them down!"
It was not until Qyburn and Steelshanks added their voices that a head finally appeared on the
battlements above them. He goggled down at them, then vanished. A short time later, they heard the
portcullis being drawn upward. The gates swung open, and Jaime Lannister spurred his horse through the
walls, scarcely glancing at the murder holes as he passed beneath them. He had been worried that the
goat might not admit them, but it seemed as if the Brave Companions still thought of them as allies. Fools.
The outer ward was deserted; only the long slate-roofed stables showed any signs of life, and it was not
horses that interested Jaime just then. He reined up and looked about. He could hear sounds from
somewhere behind the Tower of Ghosts, and men shouting in half a dozen tongues. Steelshanks and
Qyburn rode up on either side. "Get what you came back for, and we'll be gone again," said Walton. "I
want no trouble with the Mummers."
"Tell your men to keep their hands on their sword hilts, and the Mummers will want no trouble with you.
Two to one, remember?" Jaime's head jerked round at the sound of a distant roar, faint but ferocious. It
echoed off the walls of Harrenhal, and the laughter swelled up like the sea. All of a sudden, he knew
what was happening. Have we come too late? His stomach did a lurch, and he slammed his spurs into his
horse, galloping across the outer ward, beneath an arched stone bridge, around the Wailing Tower, and
through the Flowstone Yard.
They had her in the bear pit.
King Harren the Black had wished to do even his bear-baiting in lavish style. The pit was ten yards
across and five yards deep, walled in stone, floored with sand, and encircled by six tiers of marble
benches. The Brave Companions filled only a quarter of the seats, Jaime saw as he swung down clumsily
from his horse. The sellswords were so fixed on the spectacle beneath that only those across the pit
noticed their arrival.
Brienne wore the same ill-fitting gown she'd worn to supper with Roose Bolton. No shield, no
breastplate, no chainmail, not even boiled leather, only pink satin and Myrish lace. Maybe the goat
thought she was more amusing when dressed as a woman. Half her gown was hanging off in tatters, and
her left arm dripped blood where the bear had raked her.
At least they gave her a sword. The wench held it one-handed, moving sideways, trying to put some
distance between her and the bear. That's no good, the ring's too small. She needed to attack, to make a
quick end to it. Good steel was a match for any bear. But the wench seemed afraid to close. The
Mummers showered her with insults and obscene suggestions.
"This is none of our concern," Steelshanks warned Jaime. "Lord Bolton said the wench was theirs, to do
with as they liked."
"Her name's Brienne." Jaime descended the steps, past a dozen startled sellswords. Vargo Hoat had


taken the lord's box in the lowest tier. "Lord Vargo," he called over the shouts.
The Qohorik almost spilt his wine. "Kingthlayer?" The left side of his face was bandaged clumsily, the
linen over his ear spotted with blood.
"Pull her out of there."
"Thay out of thith, Kingthlayer, unleth you'd like another thump."
He waved a wine cup. "Your thee-mooth bit oth my ear. Thmall wonder her father will not ranthom
thuch a freak."
A roar turned Jaime back around. The bear was eight feet tall. Gregor Clegane with a pelt, he thought,
though likely smarter. The beast did not have the reach the Mountain had with that monster greatsword
of his, though.
Bellowing in fury, the bear showed a mouth full of great yellow teeth, then fell back to all fours and went
straight at Brienne. There's your chance, Jaime thought. Strike! Now!
instead, she poked out ineffectually with the point of her blade. The bear recoiled, then came on,
rumbling. Brienne slid to her left and poked again at the bear's face. This time he lifted a paw to swat the
sword aside.
He's wary, Jaime realized. He's gone up against other men. He knows swords and spears can hurt him.
But that won't keep him off her long. "Kill him!" he shouted, but his voice was lost amongst all the other
shouts. If Brienne heard, she gave no sign. She moved around the pit, keeping the wall at her back. Too
close. If the bear pins her by the wall ...
The beast turned clumsily, too far and too fast. Quick as a cat, Brienne changed direction. There's the
wench I remember. She leapt in to land a cut across the bear's back. Roaring, the beast went up on his
hind legs again. Brienne scrambled back away. Where's the blood? Then suddenly he understood. Jaime
rounded on Hoat. "You gave her a tourney sword."
The goat brayed laughter, spraying him with wine and spittle. "of courth."
"I'll pay her bloody ransom. Gold, sapphires, whatever you want. Pull her out of there."
"You want her? Go get her."
So he did.
He put his good hand on the marble rail and vaulted over, rolling as he hit the sand. The bear turned at
the thump, sniffing, watching this new intruder warily. Jaime scrambled to one knee. Well, what in seven
hells do I do now? He filled his fist with sand. "Kingslayer?" he heard Brienne say, astonished.
"Jaime." He uncoiled, flinging the sand at the bear's face. The bear mauled the air and roared like blazes.
"What are you doing here?"
"Something stupid. Get behind me." He circled toward her, putting himself between Brienne and the
bear.


"You get behind. I have the sword."
"A swordwith no point and no edge. Get behindme!" He saw something half-buried in the sand, and
snatched it up with his good hand. It proved to be a human jawbone, with some greenish flesh still
clinging to it, crawling with maggots. Charming, he thought, wondering whose face he held. The
bear was edging closer, so Jaime whipped his arm around and flung bone, meat, and maggots at the
beast's head. He missed by a good yard. I ought to lop my left hand off as well, for all the good it does
me.
Brienne tried to dart around, but he kicked her legs out from under her. She fell in the sand, clutching the
useless sword. Jaime straddled her, and the bear came charging.
There was a deep twang, and a feathered shaft sprouted suddenly beneath the beast's left eye. Blood
and slaver ran from his open mouth, and another bolt took him in the leg. The bear roared, reared. He
saw Jaime and Brienne again and lumbered toward them. More crossbows fired, the quarrels ripping
through fur and flesh. At such short range, the bowmen could hardly miss. The shafts hit as hard as
maces, but the bear took another step. The poor dumb brave brute. When the beast swiped at him, he
danced aside, shouting, kicking sand. The bear turned to follow his tormentor, and took another two
quarrels in the back. He gave one last rumbling growl, settled back onto his haunches, stretched out on
the bloodstained sand, and died.
Brienne got back to her knees, clutching the sword and breathing short ragged breaths. Steelshanks's
archers were winding their crossbows and reloading while the Bloody Mummers shouted curses and
threats at them. Rorge and Three Toes had swords out, Jaime saw, and Zollo was uncoiling his whip.
"You thlew my bear!" Vargo Hoat shrieked.
"And I'll serve you the same if you give me trouble," Steelshanks threw back. "We're taking the wench."
"Her name is Brienne," Jaime said. "Brienne, the maid of Tarth. You are still maiden, I hope?"
Her broad homely face turned red. "Yes."
"Oh, good," Jaime said. "I only rescue maidens." To Hoat he said, "You'll have your ransom. For both of
us. A Lannister pays his debts. Now fetch some ropes and get us out of here."
"Bugger that," Rorge growled. "Kill them, Hoat. Or you'll bloody well wish you had!"
The Qohorik hesitated. Half his men were drunk, the northmen stone sober, and there were twice as
many. Some of the crossbowmen had reloaded by now. "Pull them out," Hoat said, and then, to Jaime, "I
hath chothen to be merthiful. Tell your lord father."
"I will, my lord." Not that it will do you any good.
Not until they were half a league from Harrenhal and out of range of archers on the walls did Steelshanks
Walton let his anger show. "Are you mad, Kingslayer? Did you mean to die? No man can fight a bear
with his bare hands!"
"One bare hand and one bare stump," Jaime corrected. "But I hoped


you'd kill the beast before the beast killed me. Elsewise, Lord Bolton would have peeled you like an
orange, no?"
Steelshanks cursed him roundly for a fool of Lannister, spurred his horse, and galloped away up the
column.
"Ser Jaime?" Even in soiled pink satin and torn lace, Brienne looked more like a man in a gown than a
proper woman. "I am grateful, but... you were well away. Why come back?"
A dozen quips came to mind, each crueler than the one before, but Jaime only shrugged. "I dreamed of
you," he said.
Chapter 45
Catelyn
Rob bid farewell to his young queen thrice. Once in the godswood efore the heart tree, in sight of gods
and men. The second time eneath the portcullis, where Jeyne sent him forth with a long embrace and a
longer kiss. And finally an hour beyond the Tumblestone, when the girl came galloping up on a
well-lathered horse to plead with her young king to take her along.
Robb was touched by that, Catelyn saw, but abashed as well. The day was damp and grey, a drizzle
had begun to fall, and the last thing he wanted was to call a halt to his march so he could stand in the wet
and console a tearful young wife in front of half his army. He speaks her gently, she thought as she
watched them together, but there is anger underneath.
All the time the king and queen were talking, Grey Wind prowled around them, stopping only to shake
the water from his coat and bare his teeth at the rain. When at last Robb gave Jeyne one final kiss,
dispatched a dozen men to take her back to Riverrun, and mounted his horse once more, the direwolf
raced off ahead as swift as an arrow loosed from a longbow.
"Queen Jeyne has a loving heart, I see," said Lame Lothar Frey to Catelyn. "Not unlike my own sisters.
Why, I would wager a guess that even now Roslin is dancing round the Twins chanting 'Lady Tully, Lady
Tully, Lady Roslin Tully.' By the morrow she'll be holding swatches of Riverrun red-and-blue to her
cheek to picture how she'll look in her bride's cloak." He turned in the saddle to smile at Edmure. "But
you are strangely quiet, Lord Tully. How do you feel, I wonder?"
"Much as I did at the Stone Mill just before the warhorns sounded," Edmure said, only half in jest.
Lothar gave a good-natured laugh. "Let us pray your marriage ends as happily, my lord."
And may the gods protect us if it does not. Catelyn pressed her heels into her horse, leaving her brother
and Lame Lothar to each other's company.
it had been her who had insisted that Jeyne remain at Riverrun, when Robb would sooner have kept her
by his side. Lord Walder might well construe the queen's absence from the wedding as another slight, yet


her presence would have been a different sort of insult, salt in the old man's wound. "Walder Frey has a
sharp tongue and a long memory," she had warned her son. "I do not doubt that you are strong enough to
suffer an old man's rebukes as the price of his allegiance, but you have too much of your father in you to
sit there while he insults Jeyne to her face."
Robb could not deny the sense of that. Yet all the same, he resents me for it, Catelyn thought wearily.
He misses leyne already, and some part of him blames me for her absence, though he knows it was good
counsel.
Of the six Westerlings who had come with her son from the Crag, only one remained by his side; Ser
Raynald, Jeyne's brother, the royal banner-bearer. Robb had dispatched Jeyne's uncle Rolph Spicer to
deliver young Martyn Lannister to the Golden Tooth the very day he received Lord Tywin's assent to the
exchange of captives. it was deftly done. Her son was relieved of his fear for Martyn's safety, Galbart
Glover was relieved to hear that his brother Robett had been put on a ship at Duskendale, Ser Rolph had
important and honorable employment ... and Grey Wind was at the king's side once more. Where he
belongs.
Lady Westerling had remained at Riverrun with her children; Jeyne, her little sister Eleyna, and young
Rollam, Robb's squire, who complained bitterly about being left. Yet that was wise as well. Olyvar Frey
had squired for Robb previously, and would doubtless be present for his sister's wedding; to parade his
replacement before him would be as unwise as it was unkind. As for Ser Raynald, he was a cheerful
young knight who swore that no insult of Walder Frey's could possibly provoke him. And let us pray that
insults are all we need to contend with.
Catelyn had her fears on that score, though. Her lord father had never trusted Walder Frey after the
Trident, and she was ever mindful of that. Queen Jeyne would be safest behind the high, strong walls of
Riverrun, with the Blackfish to protect her. Robb had even created him a new title, Warden of the
Southern Marches. Ser Brynden would hold the Trident if any man could.
All the same, Catelyn would miss her uncle's craggy face, and Robb
would miss his counsel. Ser Brynden had played a part in every victory her son had won. Galbart Glover
had taken command of the scouts and outriders in his place; a good man, loyal and steady, but without
the Blackfish's brilliance.
Behind Glover's screen of scouts, Robb's line of march stretched several miles. The Greatjon led the
van. Catelyn traveled in the main column, surrounded by plodding warhorses with steelclad men on their
backs. Next came the baggage train, a procession of wayns laden with food, fodder, camp supplies,
wedding gifts, and the wounded too weak to walk, under the watchful eye of Ser Wendel Manderly and
his White Harbor knights. Herds of sheep and goats and scrawny cattle trailed behind, and then a little
tail of footsore camp followers. Even farther back was Robin Flint and the rearguard. There was no
enemy in back of them for hundreds of leagues, but Robb would take no chances.
Thirty-five hundred they were, thirty-five hundred who had been blooded in the Whispering Wood, who
had reddened their swords at the Battle of the Camps, at Oxcross, Ashemark, and the Crag, and all
through the gold-rich hills of the Lannister west. Aside from her brother Edmure's modest retinue of
friends, the lords of the Trident had remained to hold the riverlands while the king retook the north.
Ahead awaited Edmure's bride and Robb's next battle ... and for me, two dead sons, an empty bed, and
a castle full of ghosts. It was a cheerless prospect. Brienne, where are you? Bring my girls back to me,
Brienne. Bring them back safe.


The drizzle that had sent them off turned into a soft steady rain by midday, and continued well past
nightfall. The next day the northmen never saw the sun at all, but rode beneath leaden skies with their
hoods pulled up to keep the water from their eyes. It was a heavy rain, turning roads to mud and fields to
quagmires, swelling the rivers and stripping the trees of their leaves. The constant patter made idle chatter
more bother than it was worth, so men spoke only when they had something to say, and that was seldom
enough.
"We are stronger than we seem, my lady," Lady Maege Mormont said as they rode. Catelyn had grown
fond of Lady Maege and her eldest daughter, Dacey; they were more understanding than most in the
matter of Jaime Lannister, she had found. The daughter was tall and lean, the mother short and stout, but
they dressed alike in mail and leather, with the black bear of House Mormont on shield and surcoat. By
Catelyn's lights, that was queer garb for a lady, yet Dacey and Lady Maege seemed more comfortable,
both as warriors and as women, than ever the girl from Tarth had been.
"I have fought beside the Young Wolf in every battle," Dacey Mormont said cheerfully. "He has not lost
one yet."
No, but he has lost everything else, Catelyn thought, but it would not do to say it aloud. The northmen
did not lack for courage, but they were far from home, with little enough to sustain them but for their faith
in their young king. That faith must be protected, at all costs. I must be stronger, she told herself. I must
be strong for Robb. If I despair, my grief will consume me. Everything would turn on this marriage. If
Edmure and Roslin were happy in one another, if the Late Lord Frey could be appeased and his power
once more wedded to Robb's ... Even then, what chance will we have, caught between Lannister and
Greyjoy? It was a question Catelyn dared not dwell on, though Robb dwelt on little else. She saw how
he studied his maps whenever they made camp, searching for some plan that might win back the north.
Her brother Edmure had other cares. "You don't suppose all Lord Walder's daughters look like him, do
you?" he wondered, as he sat in his tall striped pavilion with Catelyn and his friends.
"With so many different mothers, a few of the maids are bound to turn up comely," said Ser Marq Piper,
"but why should the old wretch give you a pretty one?"
"No reason at all," said Edmure in a glum tone.
It was more than Catelyn could stand. "Cersei Larmister is comely," she said sharply. "You'd be wiser to
pray that Roslin is strong and healthy, with a good head and a loyal heart." And with that she left them.
Edmure did not take that well. The next day he avoided her entirely on the march, preferring the
company of Marq Piper, Lymond Goodbrook, Patrek Mallister, and the young Vances. They do not
scold him, except in jest, Catelyn told herself when they raced by her that afternoon with nary a word. I
have always been too hard with Edmure, and now grief sharpens my every word. She regretted her
rebuke. There was rain enough falling from the sky without her making more. And was it really such a
terrible thing, to want a pretty wife? She remembered her own childish disappointment, the first time she
had laid eyes on Eddard Stark. She had pictured him as a younger version of his brother Brandon, but
that was wrong. Ned was shorter and plainer of face, and so somber. He spoke courteously enough, but
beneath the words she sensed a coolness that was all at odds with Brandon, whose mirths had been as
wild as his rages. Even when he took her maidenhood, their love had more of duty to it than of passion.
We made Robb that night, though; we made a king together. And after the war, at Winterfell, I had love
enough for any woman, once I found the good sweet heart beneath Ned's solemn face. There is no
reason Edmure should not find the same, with his Roslin.


As the gods would have it, their route took them through the Whispering Wood where Robb had won
his first great victory. They followed the course of the twisting stream on the floor of that pinched narrow
valley,
much as Jaime Lannister's men had done that fateful night. It was warmer then, Catelyn remembered, the
trees were still green, and the stream did not overflow its banks. Fallen leaves choked the flow now and
lay in sodden snarls among the rocks and roots, and the trees that had once hidden Robb's army had
exchanged their green raiment for leaves of dull gold spotted with brown, and a red that reminded her of
rust and dry blood. Only the spruce and the soldier pines still showed green, thrusting up at the belly of
the clouds like tall dark spears.
More than the trees have died since then, she reflected. on the night of the Whispering Wood, Ned was
still alive in his cell beneath Aegon's High Hill, Bran and Rickon were safe behind the walls of Winterfell.
And Theon Greyjoy fought at Robb's side, and boasted of how he had almost crossed swords with the
Kingslayer. Would that he had. lf Theon had died in place of Lord Karstark's sons, how much ill would
have been undone?
As they passed through the battleground, Catelyn glimpsed signs of the carnage that had been; an
overturned helm filling with rain, a splintered lance, the bones of a horse. Stone cairns had been raised
over some of the men who had fallen here, but scavengers had already been at them. Amidst the tumbles
of rock, she spied brightly colored cloth and bits of shiny metal. Once she saw a face peering out at her,
the shape of the skull beginning to emerge from beneath the melting brown flesh.
It made her wonder where Ned had come to rest. The silent sisters had taken his bones north, escorted
by Hallis Mollen and a small honor guard. Had Ned ever reached Winterfell, to be interred beside his
brother Brandon in the dark crypts beneath the castle? Or did the door slam shut at Moat Cailin before
Hal and the sisters could pass?
Thirty-five hundred riders wound their way along the valley floor through the heart of the Whispering
Wood, but Catelyn Stark had seldom felt lonelier. Every league she crossed took her farther from
Riverrun, and she found herself wondering whether she would ever see the castle again. Or was it lost to
her forever, like so much else?
Five days later, their scouts rode back to warn them that the rising waters had washed out the wooden
bridge at Fairmarket. Galbart Glover and two of his bolder men had tried swimming their mounts across
the turbulent Blue Fork at Ramsford. Two of the horses had been swept under and drowned, and one of
the riders; Glover himself managed to cling to a rock until they could pull him in. "The river hasn't run this
high since sprin&" Edmure said. "And if this rain keeps falling, it will go higher yet."
"There's a bridge further upstream, near Oldstones," remembered Catelyn, who had often crossed these
lands with her father. "It's older and smaller, but if it still stands - "
"It's gone, my lady," Galbart Glover said. "Washed away even before the one at Fairmarket."
Robb looked to Catelyn. "Is there another bridge?"
"No. And the fords will be impassable." She tried to remember. "If we cannot cross the Blue Fork, we'll
have to go around it, through Sevenstreams and Hag's Mire."
"Bogs and bad roads, or none at all," warned Edmure. "The going will be slow, but we'll get there, I
suppose."


"Lord Walder will wait, I'm sure," said Robb. "Lothar sent him a bird from Riverrun, he knows we are
coming."
"Yes, but the man is prickly, and suspicious by nature," said Catelyn. "He may take this delay as a
deliberate insult."
"Very well, I'll beg his pardon for our tardiness as well. A sorry king I'll be, apologizing with every
second breath." Robb made a wry face. "I hope Bolton got across the Trident before the rains began.
The kingsroad runs straight north, he'll have an easy march. Even afoot, he should reach the Twins before
us."
"And when you've joined his men to yours and seen my brother married, what then?" Catelyn asked him.
"North." Robb scratched Grey Wind behind an ear.
"By the causeway? Against Moat Cailin?"
He gave her an enigmatic smile. "That's one way to go," he said, and she knew from his tone that he
would say no more. A wise king keeps his own counsel, she reminded herself.
They reached Oldstones after eight more days of steady rain, and made their camp upon the hill
overlooking the Blue Fork, within a ruined stronghold of the ancient river kings. Its foundations remained
amongst the weeds to show where the walls and keeps had stood, but the local smallfolk had long ago
made off with most of the stones to raise their bams and septs and holdfasts. Yet in the center of what
once would have been the castle's yard, a great carved sepulcher still rested, half hidden in waist-high
brown grass amongst a stand of ash.
The lid of the sepulcher had been carved into a likeness of the man whose bones lay beneath, but the
rain and the wind had done their work. The king had worn a beard, they could see, but otherwise his
face was smooth and featureless, with only vague suggestions of a mouth, a nose, eyes, and the crown
about the temples. His hands folded over the shaft of a stone warhammer that lay upon his chest. Once
the warhammer would have been carved with runes that told its name and history, but all that the
centuries had worn away. The stone itself was cracked and crumbling at the comers, discolored here and
there by spreading white splotches of lichen, while wild roses crept up over the king's feet almost to his
chest.
It was there that Catelyn found Robb, standing somber in the gathering dusk with only Grey Wind
beside him. The rain had stopped for once, and he was bareheaded. "Does this castle have a name?" he
asked quietly, when she came up to him.
"Oldstones, all the smallfolk called it when I was a girl, but no doubt it had some other name when it was
still a hall of kings." She had camped here once with her father, on their way to Seagard. Petyr was with
us too ...
"There's a song," he remembered. "'Jenny of Oldstones, with the flowers in her hair."'
"We're all just songs in the end. If we are lucky." She had played at being jenny that day, had even
wound flowers in her hair. And Petyr had pretended to be her Prince of Dragonflies. Catelyn could not
have been more than twelve, Petyr just a boy.


Robb studied the sepulcher. "Whose grave is this?"
"Here lies Tristifer, the Fourth of His Name, King of the Rivers and the Hills." Her father had told her his
story once. "He ruled from the Trident to the Neck, thousands of years before jenny and her prince, in
the days when the kingdoms of the First Men were falling one after the other before the onslaught of the
Andals. The Hammer of justice, they called him. He fought a hundred battles and won nine-and-ninety,
or so the singers say, and when he raised this castle it was the strongest in Westeros." She put a hand on
her son's shoulder. "He died in his hundredth battle, when seven Andal kings joined forces against him.
The fifth Tristifer was not his equal, and soon the kingdom was lost, and then the castle, and last of all the
line. With Tristifer the Fifth died House Mudd, that had ruled the riverlands for a thousand years before
the Andals came."
"His heir failed him." Robb ran a hand over the rough weathered stone. "I had hoped to leave Jeyne with
child ... we tried often enough, but I'm not certain. . . "
"It does not always happen the first time." Though it did with you. "Nor even the hundredth. You are
very young."
"Young, and a king," he said. "A king must have an heir. if I should die in my next battle, the kingdom
must not die with me. By law Sansa is next in line of succession, so Winterfell and the north would pass
to her." His mouth tightened. "To her, and her lord husband. Tyrion Lannister. I cannot allow that. I will
not allow that. That dwarf must never have the north."
"No," Catelyn agreed. "You must name another heir, until such time as Jeyne gives you a son." She
considered a moment. "Your father's father had no siblings, but his father had a sister who married a
younger son of Lord Raymar Royce, of the junior branch. They had three daughters, all
of whom wed Vale lordlings. A Waynwood and a Corbray, for certain. The youngest ... it might have
been a Templeton, but . . . "
"Mother." There was a sharpness in Robb's tone. "You forget. My father had four sons."
She had not forgotten; she had not wanted to look at it, yet there it was. "A Snow is not a Stark."
"Jon's more a Stark than some lordlings from the Vale who have never so much as set eyes on
Winterfell."
It Jon is a brother of the Night's Watch, sworn to take no wife and hold no lands. Those who take the
black serve for life."
"So do the knights of the Kingsguard. That did not stop the Lannisters from stripping the white cloaks
from Ser Barristan Selmy and Ser Boros Blount when they had no more use for them. If I send the
Watch a hundred men in Jon's place, I'll wager they find some way to release him from his vows."
He is set on this. Catelyn knew how stubborn her son could be. "A bastard cannot inherit."
"Not unless he's legitimized by a royal decree," said Robb. "There is more precedent for that than for
releasing a Sworn Brother from his oath."
"Precedent," she said bitterly. "Yes, Aegon the Fourth legitimized all his bastards on his deathbed. And
how much pain, grief, war, and murder grew from that? I know you trust Jon. But can you trust his sons?


Or their sons? The Blackfyre pretenders troubled the Targaryens for five generations, until Barristan the
Bold slew the last of them on the Stepstones. If you make Jon legitimate, there is no way to turn him
bastard again. Should he wed and breed, any sons you may have by Jeyne will never be safe."
"Jon would never harm a son of mine."
"No more than Theon Greyjoy would harm Bran or Rickon?"
Grey Wind leapt up atop King Tristifer's crypt, his teeth bared. Robb's own face was cold. "That is as
cruel as it is unfair. Jon is no Theon."
"So you pray. Have you considered your sisters? What of their rights? I agree that the north must not be
permitted to pass to the imp, but what of Arya? By law, she comes after Sansa ... your own sister,
trueborn . . . "
". . . and dead. No one has seen or heard of Arya since they cut Father's head off. Why do you lie to
yourself? Arya's gone, the same as Bran and Rickon, and they'll kill Sansa too once the dwarf gets a
child from her. Jon is the only brother that remains to me. Should I die without issue, I want him to
succeed me as King in the North. I had hoped you would support my choice."
"I cannot," she said. "In all else, Robb. In everything. But not in this ... this folly. Do not ask it."
"I don't have to. I'm the king." Robb turned and walked off, Grey Wind bounding down from the tomb
and loping after him.
What have I done? Catelyn thought wearily, as she stood alone by Tristifer's stone sepulcher. First I
anger Edmure, and now Robb, but all I have done is speak the truth. Are men so fragile they cannot bear
to hear it? She might have wept then, had not the sky begun to do it for her. It was all she could do to
walk back to her tent, and sit there in the silence.
In the days that followed, Robb was everywhere and anywhere; riding at the head of the van with the
Greatjon, scouting with Grey Wind, racing back to Robin Flint and the rearguard. Men said proudly that
the Young Wolf was the first to rise each dawn and the last to sleep at night, but Catelyn wondered
whether he was sleeping at all. He grows as lean and hungry as his direwolf.
"My lady," Maege Mormont said to her one morning as they rode through a steady rain, "you seem so
somber. Is aught amiss?"
My lord husband is dead, as is my father. Two of my sons have been murdered, my daughter has been
given to a faithless dwarf to bear his vile children, my other daughter is vanished and likely dead, and my
last son and my only brother are both angry with me. What could possibly be amiss? That was more truth
than Lady Maege would wish to hear, however. "This is an evil rain," she said instead. "We have suffered
much, and there is more peril and more grief ahead. We need to face it boldly, with homs blowing and
banners flying bravely. But this rain beats us down. The banners hang limp and sodden, and the men
huddle under their cloaks and scarcely speak to one another. Only an evil rain would chill our hearts
when most we need them to bum hot."
Dacey Mormont looked up at the sky. "I would sooner have water raining down on me than arrows."
Catelyn smiled despite herself. "You are braver than I am, I fear. Are all your Bear Island women such
warriors?"


"She-bears, aye," said Lady Maege. "We have needed to be. In olden days the ironmen would come
raiding in their longboats, or wildlings from the Frozen Shore. The men would be off fishing, like as not.
The wives they left behind had to defend themselves and their children, or else be carried off."
"There's a carving on our gate," said Dacey. "A woman in a bearskin, with a child in one arm suckling at
her breast. In the other hand she holds a battleaxe. She's no proper lady, that one, but I always loved
her."
"My nephew Jorah brought home a proper lady once," said Lady Maege. "He won her in a tourney.
How she hated that carving."
"Aye, and all the rest," said Dacey. "She had hair like spun gold,
that Lynesse. Skin like cream. But her soft hands were never made for axes."
"Nor her teats for giving suck," her mother said bluntly.
Catelyn knew of whom they spoke; Jorah Mormont had brought his second wife to Winterfell for feasts,
and once they had guested for a fortnight. She remembered how young the Lady Lynesse had been, how
fair, and how unhappy. One night, after several cups of wine, she had confessed to Catelyn that the north
was no place for a Hightower of Oldtown. "There was a Tully of Riverrun who felt the same once," she
had answered gently, trying to console, "but in time she found much here she could love."
All lost now, she reflected. Winterfell and Ned, Bran and Rickon, Sansa, Arya, all gone. Only Robb
remains. Had there been too much of Lynesse Hightower in her after all, and too little of the Starks?
Would that I had known how to wield an axe, perhaps I might have been able to protect them better.
Day followed day, and still the rain kept falling. All the way up the Blue Fork they rode, past
Sevenstrearns where the river unraveled into a confusion of rills and brooks, then through Hag's Mire,
where glistening green pools waited to swallow the unwary and the soft ground sucked at the hooves of
their horses like a hungry babe at its mother's breast. The going was worse than slow. Half the wayns had
to be abandoned to the muck, their loads distributed amongst mules and draft horses.
Lord Jason Mallister caught up with them amidst the bogs of Hag's Mire. There was more than an hour
of daylight remaining when he rode up with his column, but Robb called a halt at once, and Ser Raynald
Westerling came to escort Catelyn to the king's tent. She found her son seated beside a brazier, a map
across his lap. Grey Wind slept at his feet. The Greatjon was with him, along with Galbart Glover,
Maege Mormont, Edmure, and a man that Catelyn did not know, a fleshy balding man with a cringing
look to him. No lordling, this one, she knew the moment she laid eyes on the stranger. Not even a
warrior.
Jason Mallister rose to offer Catelyn his seat. His hair had almost as much white in it as brown, but the
Lord of Seagard was still a handsome man; tall and lean, with a chiseled clean-shaven face, high
cheekbones, and fierce blue-grey eyes. "Lady Stark, it is ever a pleasure. I bring good tidings, I hope."
"We are in sore need of some, my lord." She sat, listening to the rain patter down noisily against the
canvas overhead.
Robb waited for Ser Raynald to close the tent flap. "The gods have heard our prayers, my lords. Lord
Jason has brought us the captain of the Myraham, a merchanter out of Oldtown. Captain, tell them what


you told me."
"Aye, Your Grace." He licked his thick lips nervously. "My last port of call afore Seagard, that was
Lordsport on Pyke. The ironmen kept me there more'n half a year, they did. King Balon's command.
Only, well, the long and the short of it is, he's dead."
"Balon Greyjoy?" Catelyn's heart skipped a beat. "You are telling us that Balon Greyjoy is dead?"
The shabby little captain nodded. "You know how Pyke's built on a headland, and part on rocks and
islands off the shore, with bridges between? The way I heard it in Lordsport, there was a blow coming in
from the west, rain and thunder, and old King Balon was crossing one of them bridges when the wind got
hold of it and just tore the thing to pieces. He washed up two days later, all bloated and broken. Crabs
ate his eyes, I hear."
The Greatjon laughed. "King crabs, I hope, to sup upon such royal jelly, eh?"
The captain bobbed his head. "Aye, but that's not all of it, no!" He leaned forward. "The brother's back."
"Victarion?" asked Galbart Glover, surprised.
"Euron. Crow's Eye, they call him, as black a pirate as ever raised a sail. He's been gone for years, but
Lord Balon was no sooner cold than there he was, sailing into Lordsport in his Silence. Black sails and a
red hull, and crewed by mutes. He'd been to Asshai and back, I heard. Wherever he was, though, he's
home now, and he marched right into Pyke and sat his arse in the Seastone Chair, and drowned Lord
Botley in a cask of seawater when he objected. That was when I ran back to Myraham and slipped
anchor, hoping I could get away whilst things were confused. And so I did, and here I am."
"Captain," said Robb when the man was done, "you have my thanks, and you will not go unrewarded.
Lord Jason will take you back to your ship when we are done. Pray wait outside."
"That I will, Your Grace. That I will."
No sooner had he left the king's pavilion than the Greatjon began to laugh, but Robb silenced him with a
look. "Euron Greyjoy is no man's notion of a king, if half of what Theon said of him was true. Theon is
the rightful heir, unless he's dead ... but Victarion commands the Iron Fleet. I can't believe he would
remain at Moat Cailin while Euron Crow's Eye holds the Seastone Chair. He has to go back."
"There's a daughter as well," Galbart Glover reminded him. "The one who holds Deepwood Motte, and
Robett's wife and child."
"If she stays at Deepwood Motte that's all she can hope to hold," said Robb. "What's true for the
brothers is even more true for her. She will need to sail home to oust Euron and press her own claim."
Her son turned to Lord Jason Mallister. "You have a fleet at Seagard?"
"A fleet, Your Grace? Half a dozen longships and two war galleys. Enough to defend my own shores
against raiders, but I could not hope to meet the Iron Fleet in battle."
"Nor would I ask it of you. The ironborn will be setting sail toward Pyke, I expect. Theon told me how
his people think. Every captain a king on his own deck. They will all want a voice in the succession. My
lord, I need two of your longships to sail around the Cape of Eagles and up the Neck to Greywater
Watch."


Lord Jason hesitated. "A dozen streams drain the wetwood, all shallow, silty, and uncharted. I would not
even call them rivers. The channels are ever drifting and changing. There are endless sandbars, deadfalls,
and tangles of rotting trees. And Greywater Watch moves. How are my ships to find it?"
"Go upriver flying my banner. The crannogmen will find you. I want two ships to double the chances of
my message reaching Howland Reed. Lady Maege shall go on one, Galbart on the second." He turned to
the two he'd named. "You'll carry letters for those lords of mine who remain in the north, but all the
commands within will be false, in case you have the misfortune to be taken. If that happens, you must tell
them that you were sailing for the north. Back to Bear Island, or for the Stony Shore." He tapped a finger
on the map. "Moat Cailin is the key. Lord Balon knew that, which is why he sent his brother Victarion
there with the hard heart of the Greyjoy strength."
"Succession squabbles or no, the ironborn are not such fools as to abandon Moat Cailin," said Lady
Maege.
"No," Robb admitted. "Victarion will leave the best part of his garrison, I'd guess. Every man he takes
will be one less man we need to fight, however. And he will take many of his captains, count on that. The
leaders. He will need such men to speak for him if he hopes to sit the Seastone Chair."
"You cannot mean to attack up the causeway, Your Grace," said Galbart Glover. "The approaches are
too narrow. There is no way to deploy. No one has ever taken the Moat."
"From the south," said Robb. "But if we can attack from the north and west simultaneously, and take the
ironmen in the rear while they are beating off what they think is my main thrust up the causeway, then we
have a chance. Once I link up with Lord Bolton and the Freys, I will have more than twelve thousand
men. I mean to divide them into three battles and start up the causeway a half-day apart. If the Greyjoys
have eyes south of the Neck, they will see my whole strength rushing headlong at Moat Cailin.
"Roose Bolton will have the rearguard, while I command the center. Greatjon, you shall lead the van
against Moat Cailin. Your attack must
be so fierce that the ironborn have no leisure to wonder if anyone is creeping down on them from the
north."
The Greatjon chuckled. "Your creepers best come fast, or my men will swarm those walls and win the
Moat before you show your face. I'll make a gift of it to you when you come dawdling up."
"That's a gift I should be glad to have," said Robb.
Edmure was frowning. "You talk of attacking the ironmen in the rear, sire, but how do you mean to get
north of them?"
"There are ways through the Neck that are not on any map, Uncle. Ways known only to the
crannogmen - narrow trails between the bogs, and wet roads through the reeds that only boats can
follow." He turned to his two messengers. "Tell Howland Reed that he is to send guides to me, two days
after I have started up the causeway. To the center battle, where my own standard flies. Three hosts will
leave the Twins, but only two will reach Moat Cailin. Mine own battle will melt away into the Neck, to
reemerge on the Fever. if we move swiftly once my uncle's wed, we can all be in position by year's end.
We will fall upon the Moat from three sides on the first day of the new century, as the ironmen are
waking with hammers beating at their heads from the mead they'll quaff the night before."


"I like this plan," said the Greatjon. "I like it well."
Galbart Glover rubbed his mouth. "There are risks. If the crannogmen should fail you..."
"We will be no worse than before. But they will not fail. My father knew the worth of Howland Reed."
Robb rolled up the map, and only then looked at Catelyn. "Mother."
She tensed. "Do you have some part in this for me?"
"Your part is to stay safe. Our journey through the Neck will be dangerous, and naught but battle awaits
us in the north. But Lord Mallister has kindly offered to keep you safe at Seagard until the war is done.
You will be comfortable there, I know."
Is this my punishment for opposing him about Ion Snow? Or for being a woman, and worse, a mother?
It took her a moment to realize that they were all watching her. They had known, she realized. Catelyn
should not have been surprised. She had won no friends by freeing the Kingslayer, and more than once
she had heard the Greatjon say that women had no place on a battlefield.
Her anger must have blazed across her face, because Galbart Glover spoke up before she said a word.
"My lady, His Grace is wise. It's best you do not come with us."
"Seagard will be brightened by your presence, Lady Catelyn," said Lord Jason Mallister.
"You would make me a prisoner," she said.
"An honored guest," Lord Jason insisted.
Catelyn turned to her son. "I mean no offense to Lord Jason," she said stiffly, "but if I cannot continue on
with you, I would sooner return to Riverrun."
"I left my wife at Riverrun. I want my mother elsewhere. If you keep all your treasures in one purse, you
only make it easier for those who would rob you. After the wedding, you shall go to Seagard, that is my
royal command." Robb stood, and as quick as that, her fate was settled. He picked up a sheet of
parchment. "One more matter. Lord Balon has left chaos in his wake, we hope. I would not do the same.
Yet I have no son as yet, my brothers Bran and Rickon are dead, and my sister is wed to a Lannister.
I've thought long and hard about who might follow me. I command you now as my true and loyal lords to
fix your seals to this document as witnesses to my decision."
A king indeed, Catelyn thought, defeated. She could only hope that the trap he'd planned for Moat
Cailin worked as well as the one in which he'd just caught her.
Chapter 46
SAMWELL
Whitetree, Sam thought. Please, let this be Whitetree. He remembered Whitetree. Whitetree was on the


maps he'd drawn, on their way north. If this village was Whitetree, he knew where they were. Please, it
has to be. He wanted that so badly that he forgot his feet for a little bit, he forgot the ache in his calves
and his lower back and the stiff frozen fingers he could scarcely feel. He even forgot about Lord
Mormont and Craster and the wights and the Others. Whitetree, Sam prayed, to any god that might be
listening.
All wildling villages looked much alike, though. A huge weirwood grew in the center of this one ... but a
white tree did not mean Whitetree, necessarily. Hadn't the weirwood at Whitetree been bigger than this
one? Maybe he was remembering it wrong. The face carved into the bone pale trunk was long and sad;
red tears of dried sap leaked from its eyes. Was that how it looked when we came north? Sam couldn't
recall.
Around the tree stood a handful of one-room hovels with sod roofs, a longhall built of logs and grown
over with moss, a stone well, a sheepfold ... but no sheep, nor any people. The wildlings had gone to join
Mance Rayder in the Frostfangs, taking all they owned except their houses. Sam was thankful for that.
Night was coming on, and it would be good to sleep beneath a roof for once. He was so tired. It seemed
as though he had been walking half his life. His boots were falling to pieces, and all the blisters on his feet
had burst and turned to callus, but now he had new blisters under the callus, and his toes were getting
frostbitten.
But it was either walk or die, Sam knew. Gilly was still weak from childbirth and carrying the babe
besides; she needed the horse more than
he did. The second horse had died on them three days out from Craster's Keep. It was a wonder she
lasted that long, poor half -starved thing. Sam's weight had probably done for her. They might have tried
riding double, but he was afraid the same thing would happen again. It's better that I walk.
Sam left Gilly in the longhall to make a fire while he poked his head into the hovels. She was better at
making fires; he could never seem to get the kindling to catch, and the last time he'd tried to strike a
spark off flint and steel he managed to cut himself on his knife. Gilly bound up the gash for him, but his
hand was stiff and sore, even clumsier than it had been before. He knew he should wash the wound and
change the binding, but he was afraid to look at it. Besides, it was so cold that he hated taking off his
gloves.
Sam did not know what he hoped to find in the empty houses. Maybe the wildlings had left some food
behind. He had to take a look. Jon had searched the huts at Whitetree, on their way north. Inside one
hovel Sam heard a rustling of rats from a dark corner, but otherwise there was nothing in any of them but
old straw, old smells, and some ashes beneath the smoke hole.
He turned back to the weirwood and studied the carved face a moment. It is not the face we saw, he
admitted to himself. The tree's not half as big as the one at Whitetree. The red eyes wept blood, and he
didn't remember that either. Clumsily, Sam sank to his knees. "Old gods, hear my prayer. The Seven
were my father's gods but I said my words to you when I joined the Watch. Help us now. I fear we
might be lost. We're hungry too, and so cold. I don't know what gods I believe in now, but ... please, if
you're there, help us. Gilly has a little son." That was all that he could think to say. The dusk was
deepening, the leaves of the weirwood rustling softly, waving like a thousand blood-red hands. Whether
Jon's gods had heard him or not he could not say.
By the time he returned to the longhall, Gilly had the fire going. She sat close to it with her furs opened,
the babe at her breast. He's as hungry as we are, Sam thought. The old women had smuggled out food
for them from Craster's, but they had eaten most of it by now. Sam had been a hopeless hunter even at


Hom Hill, where game was plentiful and he had hounds and huntsmen to help him; here in this endless
empty forest, the chances of him catching anything were remote. His efforts at fishing the lakes and
half-frozen streams had been dismal failures as well.
"How much longer, Sam?" Gilly asked. "is it far, still?"
"Not so far. Not so far as it was." Sam shrugged out of his pack, eased himself awkwardly to the floor,
and tried to cross his legs. His back ached so abominably from the walking that he would have liked to
lean up against one of the carved wooden pillars that supported the roof, but the
fire was in the center of the hall beneath the smoke hole and he craved warmth even more than comfort.
"Another few days should see us there."
Sam had his maps, but if this wasn't Whitetree then they weren't going to be much use. We went too far
east to get around that lake, he fretted, or maybe too far west when I tried to double back. He was
coming to hate lakes and rivers. Up here there was never a ferry or bridge, which meant walking all the
way around the lakes and searching for places to ford the rivers. It was easier to follow a game trail than
to struggle through the brush, easier to circle a ridge instead of climbing it. If Bannen or Dywen were with
us we'd be at Castle Black by now, warming our feet in the common room. Barmen was dead, though,
and Dywen gone with Grenn and Dolorous Edd and the others.
The Wall is three hundred miles long and seven hundred feet high, Sam reminded himself. If they kept
going south, they had to find it, sooner or later. And he was certain that they had been going south. By
day he took directions from the sun, and on clear nights they could follow the Ice Dragon's tail, though
they hadn't traveled much by night since the second horse had died. Even when the moon was full it was
too dark beneath the trees, and it would have been so easy for Sam or the last garron to break a leg. We
have to be well south by now, we have to be.
What he wasn't so certain of was how far east or west they might have strayed. They would reach the
Wall, yes ... in a day or a fortnight, it couldn't be farther than that, surely, surely ... but where? It was the
gate at Castle Black they needed to find; the only way through the Wall for a hundred leagues.
"Is the Wall as big as Craster used to say?" Gilly asked.
"Bigger." Sam tried to sound cheerful. "So big you can't even see the castles hidden behind it. But they're
there, you'll see. The Wall is all ice, but the castles are stone and wood. There are tall towers and deep
vaults and a huge longhall with a great fire burning in the hearth, day and night. It's so hot in there, Gilly,
you'll hardly believe it."
"Could I stand by the fire? Me and the boy? Not for a long time, just till we're good and warm?"
"You can stand by the fire as long as you like. You'll have food and drink, too. Hot mulled wine and a
bowl of venison stewed with onions, and Hobb's bread right out of the oven, so hot it will bum your
fingers." Sam peeled a glove off to wriggle his own fingers near the flames, and soon regretted it. They
had been numb with cold, but as feeling returned they hurt so much he almost cried. "Sometimes one of
the brothers will sing," he said, to take his mind off the pain. "Dareon sang best, but they sent him to
Eastwatch. There's still Halder, though. And Toad. His real name is Todder, but he looks like a toad, so
we call him that. He likes to sing, but he has an awful voice."
"Do you sing?" Gilly rearranged her furs, and she moved the babe from one breast to the other.


Sam blushed. "I ... I know some songs. When I was little I liked to sing. I danced too, but my lord father
never liked me to. He said if I wanted to prance around I should do it in the yard with a sword in my
hand."
"Could you sing some southron song? For the babe?"
"If you like." Sam thought for a moment. "There's a song our septon used to sing to me and my sisters,
when we were little and it was time for us to go to sleep. 'The Song of the Seven/ it's called." He cleared
his throat and softly sang:
The Father's face is stern and strong, he sits and judges right from wrong.
He weighs our lives, the short and long, and loves the little children.
The Mother gives the gift of life, and watches over every wife.
Her gentle smile ends all strife, and she loves her little children.
The Warrior stands before the foe, protecting us where e'er we go.
With sword and shield and spear and bow, he guards the little children.
The Crone is very wise and old, and sees our fates as they unfold.
She lifts her lamp of shining gold, to lead the little children.
The Smith, he labors day and night, to put the world of men to right.
With hammer, plow, and fire bright, he builds for little children.
The Maiden dances through the sky, she lives in every lover's sigh,
Her smiles teach the birds to fly, and give dreams to little children.
The Seven Gods who made us all, are listening if we should call.
So close your eyes, you shall not fall, they see you, little children,
fust close your eyes, you shall not fall, they see you, little children.
Sam remembered the last time he'd sung the song with his mother, to lull baby Dickon to sleep. His
father had heard their voices and come barging in, angry. "I will have no more of that," Lord Randyll told
his wife harshly. "You ruined one boy with those soft septon's songs, do you mean to do the same to this
babe?" Then he looked at Sam and said, "Go sing to your sisters, if you must sing. I don't want you near
my son."
Gilly's babe had gone to sleep. He was such a tiny thing, and so quiet that Sam feared for him. He didn't
even have a name. He had asked Gilly about that, but she said it was bad luck to name a child before he
was two. So many of them died.
She tucked her nipple back inside her furs. "That was pretty, Sam. You sing good."


"You should hear Dareon. His voice is sweet as mead."
"We drank the sweetest mead the day Craster made me a wife. It was summer then, and not so cold."
Gilly gave him a puzzled look. "Did you only sing of six gods? Craster always told us you southrons had
seven."
"Seven," he agreed, "but no one sings of the Stranger." The Stranger's face was the face of death. Even
talking of him made Sam uncomfortable. "We should eat something. A bite or two."
Nothing was left but a few black sausages, as hard as wood. Sam sawed off a few thin slices for each of
them. The effort made his wrist ache, but he was hungry enough to persist. If you chewed the slices long
enough they softened up, and tasted good. Craster's wives seasoned them with garlic.
After they had finished, Sam begged her pardon and went out to relieve himself and look after the horse.
A biting wind was blowing from the north, and the leaves in the trees rattled at him as he passed. He had
to break the thin scum of ice on top of the stream so the horse could get a drink. I had better bring her
inside. He did not want to wake up at break of day to find that their horse had frozen to death during the
night. Gilly would keep going even if that happened. The girl was very brave, not like him. He wished he
knew what he was going to do with her back at Castle Black. She kept saying how she'd be his wife if he
wanted, but black brothers didn't keep wives; besides, he was a Tarly of Horn Hill, he could never wed
a wildling. I'll have to think of something. So long as we reach the Wall alive, the rest doesn't matter, it
doesn't matter one little bit.
Leading the horse to the longhall was simple enough. Getting her through the door was not, but Sam
persisted. Gilly was already dozing by the time he got the garron inside. He hobbled the horse in a comer,
fed some fresh wood to the fire, took off his heavy cloak, and wriggled down under the furs beside the
wildling woman. His cloak was big enough to cover all three of them and keep in the warmth of their
bodies.
Gilly smelled of milk and garlic and musty old fur, but he was used to that by now. They were good
smells, so far as Sam was concerned. He liked sleeping next to her. it made him remember times long
past, when he had shared a huge bed at Hom Hill with two of his sisters. That had ended when Lord
Randyll decided it was making him soft as a girl. Sleeping alone in my own cold cell never made me any
harder or braver, though. He wondered what his father would say if he could see him now. I killed one of
the Others, my lord, he imagined saying. I stabbed him with an obsidian dagger, and my Sworn Brothers
call me Sam the Slayer now But even in his fancies, Lord Randyll only scowled, disbelieving.
His dreams were strange that night. He was back at Horn Hill, at the castle, but his father was not there.
It was Sam's castle now. Jon Snow was with him. Lord Mormont too, the Old Bear, and Grerm and
Dolorous Edd and Pyp and Toad and all his other brothers from the Watch, but they wore bright colors
instead of black. Sam sat at the high table and feasted them all, cutting thick slices off a roast with his
father's greatsword Heartsbane. There were sweet cakes to eat and honeyed wine to drink, there was
singing and dancing, and everyone was warm. When the feast was done he went up to sleep; not to the
lord's bedchamber where his mother and father lived but to the room he had once shared with his sisters.
Only instead of his sisters it was Gilly waiting in the huge soft bed, wearing nothing but a big shaggy fur,
milk leaking from her breasts.
He woke suddenly, in cold and dread.


The fire had burned down to smouldering red embers. The air itself seemed frozen, it was so cold. In the
comer the garron was whinnying and kicking the logs with her hind legs. Gilly sat beside the fire, hugging
her babe. Sam sat up groggy, his breath puffing pale from his open mouth. The longball was dark with
shadows, black and blacker. The hair on his arms was standing up.
It's nothing, he told himself. I'm cold, that's all.
Then, by the door, one of the shadows moved. A big one.
This is still a dream, Sam prayed. Oh, make it that I'm still asleep, make it a nightmare. He's dead, he's
dead, I saw him die. "He's come for the babe," Gilly wept. "He smells him. A babe fresh-born stinks o'
life. He's come for the life."
The huge dark shape stooped under the lintel, into the hall, and shambled toward them. in the dim light of
the fire, the shadow became Small Paul.
"Go away," Sam croaked. "We don't want you here."
Paul's hands were coal, his face was milk, his eyes shone a bitter blue. Hoarfrost whitened his beard,
and on one shoulder hunched a raven, pecking at his cheek, eating the dead white flesh. Sam's bladder
let go, and he felt the warmth running down his legs. "Gilly, calm the horse and lead her out. You do that."
"You - " she started.
"I have the knife. The dragonglass dagger." He fumbled it out as he got to his feet. He'd given the first
knife to Grenn, but thankfully he'd remembered to take Lord Mormont's dagger before fleeing Craster's
Keep. He clutched it tight, moving away from the fire, away from Gilly and the babe. "Paul?" He meant
to sound brave, but it came out in a squeak. "Small Paul. Do you know me? I'm Sam, fat Sam, Sam the
Scared, you saved me in the woods. You carried me when I couldn't walk another step. No one else
could have done that, but you did." Sam backed away, knife in hand, sniveling. I am such a coward.
"Don't hurt us, Paul. Please. Why would you want to hurt us?"
Gilly scrabbled backward across the hard dirt floor. The wight turned his head to look at her, but Sam
shouted "NO!" and he turned back. The raven on his shoulder ripped a strip of flesh from his pale ruined
cheek. Sam held the dagger before him, breathing like a blacksmith's bellows. Across the longhall, Gilly
reached the garron. Gods give me courage, Sam prayed. For once, give me a little courage. fust long
enough for her to get away.
Small Paul moved toward him. Sam backed off until he came up against a rough log wall. He clutched
the dagger with both hands to hold it steady. The wight did not seem to fear the dragonglass. Perhaps he
did not know what it was. He moved slowly, but Small Paul had never been quick even when he'd been
alive. Behind him, Gilly murmured to calm the garron and tried to urge it toward the door. But the horse
must have caught a whiff of the wight's queer cold scent. Suddenly she balked, rearing, her hooves
lashing at the frosty air. Paul swung toward the sound, and seemed to lose all interest in Sam.
There was no time to think or pray or be afraid. Samwell Tarly threw himself forward and plunged the
dagger down into Small Paul's back. Half-turned, the wight never saw him coming. The raven gave a
shriek and took to the air. "You're dead!" Sam screamed as he stabbed. "You're dead, you're dead." He
stabbed and screamed, again and again, tearing huge rents in Paul's heavy black cloak. Shards of
dragonglass flew everywhere as the blade shattered on the iron mail beneath the wool.


Sam's wail made a white mist in the black air. He dropped the useless hilt and took a hasty step
backwards as Small Paul twisted around. Before he could get out his other knife, the steel knife that
every brother carried, the wight's black hands locked beneath his chins. Paul's fingers were so
cold they seemed to bum. They burrowed deep into the soft flesh of Sam's throat. Run, Gilly, run, he
wanted to scream, but when he opened his mouth only a choking sound emerged.
His fumbling fingers finally found the dagger, but when he slammed it up into the wight's belly the point
skidded off the iron links, and the blade went spinning from Sam's hand. Small Paul's fingers tightened
inexorably, and began to twist. He's going to rip my head off, Sam thought in despair. His throat felt
frozen, his lungs on fire. He punched and pulled at the wight's wrists, to no avail. He kicked Paul between
the legs, uselessly. The world shrank to two blue stars, a terrible crushing pain, and a cold so fierce that
his tears froze over his eyes. Sam squirmed and pulled, desperate ... and then he lurched forward.
Small Paul was big and powerful, but Sam still outweighed him, and the wights were clumsy, he had seen
that on the Fist. The sudden shift sent Paul staggering back a step, and the living man and the dead one
went crashing down together. The impact knocked one hand from Sam's throat, and he was able to suck
in a quick breath of air before the icy black fingers returned. The taste of blood filled his mouth. He
twisted his neck around, looking for his knife, and saw a dull orange glow. The fire! Only ember and
ashes remained, but still ... he could not breathe, or think ... Sam wrenched himself sideways, pulling Paul
with him ... his arms flailed against the dirt floor, groping, reaching, scattering the ashes, until at last they
found something hot ... a chunk of charred wood, smouldering red and orange within the black ... his
fingers closed around it, and he smashed it into Paul's mouth, so hard he felt teeth shatter.
Yet even so the wight's grip did not loosen. Sam's last thoughts were for the mother who had loved him
and the father he had failed. The longhall was spinning around him when he saw the wisp of smoke rising
from between Paul's broken teeth. Then the dead man's face burst into flame, and the hands were gone.
Sam sucked in air, and rolled feebly away. The wight was burning, hoarfrost dripping from his beard as
the flesh beneath blackened. Sam heard the raven shriek, but Paul himself made no sound. When his
mouth opened, only flames came out. And his eyes . . . It's gone, the blue glow is gone.
He crept to the door. The air was so cold that it hurt to breathe, but such a fine sweet hurt. He ducked
from the longhall. "Gilly?" he called. "Gilly, I killed it. Gil - " She stood with her back against the
weirwood, the boy in her arms. The wights were all around her. There were a dozen of them, a score,
more ... some had been wildlings once, and still wore skins and hides . . . but more had been his
brothers. Sam saw Lark the Sisterman, Softfoot,
Ryles. The wen on Chett's neck was black, his boils covered with a thin flIm. of ice. And that one
looked like Hake, though it was hard to know for certain with half his head missing. They had torn the
poor garron apart, and were pulling out her entrails with dripping red hands. Pale steam rose from her
belly.
Sam made a whimpery sound. "It's not fair..."
"Fair." The raven landed on his shoulder. "Fair, far, fear." It flapped its wings, and screamed along with
Gilly. The wights were almost on her. He heard the dark red leaves of the weirwood rustling, whispering
to one another in a tongue he did not know. The starlight itself seemed to stir, and all around them the
trees groaned and creaked. Sam Tarly turned the color of curdled milk, and his eyes went wide as plates.
Ravens! They were in the weirwood, hundreds of them, thousands, perched on the bone-white branches,
peering between the leaves. He saw their beaks open as they screamed, saw them spread their black


wings. Shrieking, flapping, they descended on the wights in angry clouds. They swarmed round Chett's
face and pecked at his blue eyes, they covered the Sisterman like flies, they plucked gobbets from inside
Hake's shattered head. There were so many that when Sam looked up, he could not see the moon.
"Go," said the bird on his shoulder. "Go, go, go."
Sam ran, puffs of frost exploding from his mouth. All around him the wights flailed at the black wings and
sharp beaks that assailed them, falling in an eerie silence with never a grunt nor cry. But the ravens
ignored Sam. He took Gilly by the hand and pulled her away from the weirwood. "We have to go."
"But where?" Gilly hurried after him, holding her baby. "They killed our horse, how will we..."
"Brother!" The shout cut through the night, through the shrieks of a thousand ravens. Beneath the trees, a
man muffled head to heels in mottled blacks and greys sat astride an elk. "Here," the rider called. A hood
shadowed his face.
He's wearing blacks. Sam urged Gilly toward him. The elk was huge, a great elk, ten feet tall at the
shoulder, with a rack of antlers near as wide. The creature sank to his knees to let them mount. "Here,"
the rider said, reaching down with a gloved hand to pull Gilly up behind him. Then it was Sam's turn. "My
thanks," he puffed. Only when he grasped the offered hand did he realize that the rider wore no glove.
His hand was black and cold, with fingers hard as stone.
Chapter 47
ARYA
When they reached the top of the ridge and saw the river, Sandor Clegane reined up hard and cursed.
The rain was falling from a black iron sky, pricking the green and brown torrent with ten thousand
swords. It must be a mile across, Arya thought. The tops of half a hundred trees poked up out the
swirling waters, their limbs clutching for the sky like the arms of drowning men. Thick mats of sodden
leaves choked the shoreline, and farther out in the channel she glimpsed something pale and swollen, a
deer or perhaps a dead horse, moving swiftly downstream. There was a sound too, a low rumble at the
edge of hearing, like the sound a dog makes just before he growls.
Arya squirmed in the saddle and felt the links of the Hound's mail digging into her back. His arms
encircled her; on the left, the burned arm, he'd donned a steel vambrace for protection, but she'd seen
him change the dressings, and the flesh beneath was still raw and seeping. If the burns pained him,
though, Sandor Clegane gave no hint of it.
"Is this the Blackwater Rush?" They had ridden so far in rain and darkness, through trackless woods and
nameless villages, that Arya had lost all sense of where they were.
"It's a river we need to cross, that's all you need to know." Clegane would answer her from time to time,
but he had warned her not to talk back. He had given her a lot of warnings that first day. "The next time
you hit me, I'll tie your hands behind your back," he'd said. "The next time you try and run off, I'll bind
your feet together. Scream or shout or bite me again, and I'll gag you. We can ride double, or I can


throw you across
the back of the horse trussed up like a sow for slaughter. Your choice." She had chosen to ride, but the
first time they made camp she'd waited until she thought he was asleep, and found a big jagged rock to
smash his ugly head in. Quiet as a shadow, she told herself as she crept toward him, but that wasn't quiet
enough. The Hound hadn't been asleep after all. Or maybe he'd woken. Whichever it was, his eyes
opened, his mouth twitched, and he took the rock away from her as if she were a baby. The best she
could do was kick him. "I'll give you that one," he said, when he flung the rock into the bushes. "But if
you're stupid enough to try again, I'll hurt you."
"Why don't you just kill me like you did Mycah?" Arya had screamed at him. She was still defiant then,
more angry than scared.
He answered by grabbing the front of her tunic and yanking her within an inch of his burned face. "The
next time you say that name I'll beat you so bad you'll wish I killed you."
After that, he rolled her in his horse blanket every night when he went to sleep, and tied ropes around
her top and bottom so she was bound up as tight as a babe in swaddling clothes.
It has to be the Blackwater, Arya decided as she watched the rain lash the river. The Hound was
Joffrey's dog; he was taking her back to the Red Keep, to hand to Joffrey and the queen. She wished
that the sun would come out, so she could tell which way they were going. The more she looked at the
moss on the trees the more confused she got. The Blackwater wasn't so wide at King's Landing, but that
was before the rains.
"The fords will all be gone," Sandor Clegane said, "and I wouldn't care to try and swim over neither."
There's no way across, she thought. Lord Beric will catch us for sure. Clegane had pushed his big black
stallion hard, doubling back thrice to throw off pursuit, once even riding half a mile up the center of a
swollen stream ... but Arya still expected to see the outlaws every time she looked back. She had tried to
help them by scratching her name on the trunks of trees when she went in the bushes to make water, but
the fourth time she did it he caught her, and that was the end of that. It doesn't matter, Arya told herself,
Thoros will find me in his flames. Only he hadn't. Not yet, anyway, and once they crossed the river ...
"Harroway town shouldn't be far," the Hound said. "Where Lord Roote stables Old King Andahar's
two-headed water horse. Maybe we'll ride across."
Arya had never heard of Old King Andahar. She'd never seen a horse with two heads either, especially
not one who could run on water, but she knew better than to ask. She held her tongue and sat stiff as the
Hound turned the stallion's head and trotted along the ridgeline, following the
river downstream. At least the rain was at their backs this way. She'd had enough of it stinging her eyes
half-blind and washing down her cheeks like she was crying. Wolves never cry, she reminded herself
again.
It could not have been much past noon, but the sky was dark as dusk. They had not seen the sun in
more days than she could count. Arya was soaked to the bone, saddle-sore, sniffling, and achy. She had
a fever too, and sometimes shivered uncontrollably, but when she'd told the Hound that she was sick he'd
only snarled at her. "Wipe your nose and shut your mouth," he told her. Half the time he slept in the
saddle now, trusting his stallion to follow whatever rutted farm track or game trail they were on. The
horse was a heavy courser, almost as big as a destrier but much faster. Stranger, the Hound called him.


Arya had tried to steal him once, when Clegane was taking a piss against a tree, thinking she could ride
off before he could catch her. Stranger had almost bitten her face off. He was gentle as an old gelding
with his master, but otherwise he had a temper as black as he was. She had never known a horse so
quick to bite or kick.
They rode beside the river for hours, splashing across two muddy vassal streams before they reached
the place that Sandor Clegane had spoken of. "Lord Harroway's Town," he said, and then, when he saw
it, "Seven hells!" The town was drowned and desolate. The rising waters had overflowed the riverbanks.
All that remained of Harroway town was the upper story of a daub-and-wattle inn, the seven-sided
dome of a sunken sept, two-thirds of a stone roundtower, some moldy thatch roofs, and a forest of
chimneys.
But there was smoke coming from the tower, Arya saw, and below one arched window a wide
flat-bottomed boat was chained up tight. The boat had a dozen oarlocks and a pair of great carved
wooden horse heads mounted fore and aft. The two-headed horse, she realized. There was a wooden
house with a sod roof right in the middle of the deck, and when the Hound cupped his hands around his
mouth and shouted two men came spilling out. A third appeared in the window of the roundtower,
clutching a loaded crossbow. "What do you want?" he shouted across the swirling brown waters.
"Take us over," the Hound shouted back.
The men in the boat conferred with one another. One of them, a grizzled grey-haired man with thick
arms and a bent back, stepped to the rail. "It will cost you."
"Then I'll pay."
With what? Arya wondered. The outlaws had taken Clegane's gold, but maybe Lord Beric had left him
some silver and copper. A ferry ride shouldn't cost more than a few coppers ...
The ferrymen were talking again. Finally the bent-backed one turned
away and gave a shout. Six more men appeared, pulling up hoods to keep the rain off their heads. Still
more squirmed out the holdfast window and leapt down onto the deck. Half of them looked enough like
the bent-backed man to be his kin. Some of them undid the chains and took up long poles, while the
others slid heavy wide-bladed oars through the locks. The ferry swung about and began to creep slowly
toward the shallows, oars stroking smoothly on either side. Sandor Clegane rode down the hill to meet it.
When the aft end of the boat slammed into the hillside, the ferrymen opened a wide door beneath the
carved horse's head, and extended a heavy oaken plank. Stranger balked at the water's edge, but the
Hound put his heels into the courser's flank and urged him up the gangway. The bent-backed man was
waiting for them on deck. "Wet enough for you, ser?" he asked, smiling.
The Hound's mouth gave a twitch. "I need your boat, not your bloody wit." He dismounted, and pulled
Arya down beside him. One of the boatmen reached for Stranger's bridle. "I wouldn't," Clegane said, as
the horse kicked. The man leapt back, slipped on the rain-slick deck, and crashed onto his arse, cursing.
The ferryman with the bent back wasn't smiling any longer. "We can get you across," he said sourly. "It
will cost you a gold piece. Another for the horse. A third for the boy."
"Three dragons?" Clegane gave a bark of laughter. "For three dragons I should own the bloody ferry."


"Last year, might be you could. But with this river, I'll need extra hands on the poles and oars just to see
we don't get swept a hundred miles out to sea. Here's your choice. Three dragons, or you teach that
hellhorse how to walk on water."
"I like an honest brigand. Have it your way. Three dragons ... when you put us ashore safe on the north
bank."
"I'll have them now, or we don't go." The man thrust out a thick, callused hand, palm up.
Clegane rattled his longsword to loosen the blade in the scabbard. "Here's your choice. Gold on the
north bank, or steel on the south."
The ferryman looked up at the Hound's face. Arya could tell that he didn't like what he saw there. He
had a dozen men behind him, strong men with oars and hardwood poles in their hands, but none of them
were rushing forward to help him. Together they could overwhelm Sandor Clegane, though he'd likely kill
three or four of them before they took him down. "How do I know you're good for it?" the bent-backed
man asked, after a moment.
He's not, she wanted to shout. instead she bit her lip.
"Knight's honor," the Hound said, unsmiling.
He's not even a knight. She did not say that either.
"That will do." The ferryman spat. "Come on then, we can have you across before dark. Tie the horse
up, I don't want him spooking when we're under way. There's a brazier in the cabin if you and your son
want to get warm."
"I'm not his stupid son!" said Arya furiously. That was even worse than being taken for a boy. She was
so angry that she might have told them who she really was, only Sandor Clegane grabbed her by the
back of the collar and hoisted her one-handed off the deck. "How many times do I need to tell you to
shut your bloodymouth? " He shook her so hard her teeth rattled, then let her fall. "Get in there and get
dry, like the man said."
Arya did as she was told. The big iron brazier was glowing red, filling the room with a sullen suffocating
heat. It felt pleasant to stand beside it, to warm her hands and dry off a little bit, but as soon as she felt
the deck move under her feet she slipped back out through the forward door.
The two-headed horse eased slowly through the shallows, picking its way between the chimneys and
rooftops of drowned Harroway. A dozen men labored at the oars while four more used the long poles to
push off whenever they came too close to a rock, a tree, or a sunken house. The bent-backed man had
the rudder. Rain pattered against the smooth planks of the deck and splashed off the tall carved
horseheads fore and aft. Arya was getting soaked again, but she didn't care. She wanted to see. The man
with the crossbow still stood in the window of the roundtower, she saw. His eyes followed her as the
ferry slid by underneath. She wondered if he was this Lord Roote that the Hound had mentioned. He
doesn't look much like a lord. But then, she didn't look much like a lady either.
Once they were beyond the town and out in the river proper, the current grew much stronger. Through
the grey haze of rain Arya could make out a tall stone pillar on the far shore that surely marked the ferry
landing, but no sooner had she seen it than she realized that they were being pushed away from it,
downstream. The oarsmen were rowing more vigorously now, fighting the rage of the river. Leaves and


broken branches swirled past as fast as if they'd been fired from a scorpion. The men with the poles
leaned out and shoved away anything that came too close. It was windier out here, too. Whenever she
turned to look upstream, Arya got a face full of blowing rain. Stranger was screaming and kicking as the
deck moved underfoot.
if I jumped over the side, the river would wash me away before the Hound even knew that I was gone.
She looked back over a shoulder, and saw Sandor Clegane struggling with his frightened horse, trying to
calm him. She would never have a better chance to get away from him. I might drown, though. Jon used
to say that she swam like a fish, but even a fish might have trouble in this river. Still, drowning might be
better than
King's Landing. She thought about Joffrey and crept up to the prow. The river was murky brown with
mud and lashed by rain, looking more like soup than water. Arya wondered how cold it would be. I
couldn't get much wetter than I am now She put a hand on the rail.
But a sudden shout snapped her head about before she could leap. The ferrymen were rushing forward,
poles in hand. For a moment she did not understand what was happening. Then she saw it: an uprooted
tree, huge and dark, coming straight at them. A tangle of roots and limbs poked up out of the water as it
came, like the reaching arms of a great kraken. The oarsmen were backing water frantically, trying to
avoid a collision that could capsize them or stove their hull in. The old man had wrenched the rudder
about, and the horse at the prow was swinging downstream, but too slowly. Glistening brown and black,
the tree rushed toward them like a battering ram.
It could not have been more than ten feet from their prow when two of the boatmen somehow caught it
with their long poles. One snapped, and the long splintering craaaack made it sound as if the ferry were
breaking up beneath them. But the second man managed to give the trunk a hard shove, just enough to
deflect it away from them. The tree swept past the ferry with inches to spare, its branches scrabbling like
claws against the horsehead. Only just when it seemed as if they were clear, one of the monster's upper
limbs dealt them a glancing thump. The ferry seemed to shudder, and Arya slipped, landing painfully on
one knee. The man with the broken pole was not so lucky. She heard him shout as he stumbled over the
side. Then the raging brown water closed over him, and he was gone in the time it took Arya to climb
back to her feet. One of the other boatmen snatched up a coil of rope, but there was no one to throw it
to.
Maybe he'll wash up someplace downstream, Arya tried to tell herself, but the thought had a hollow ring.
She had lost all desire to go swimming. When Sandor Clegane shouted at her to get back inside before
he beat her bloody, she went meekly. The ferry was fighting to turn back on course by then, against a
river that wanted nothing more than to carry it down to the sea.
When they finally came ashore, it was a good two miles downriver of their usual landing. The boat
slammed into the bank so hard that another pole snapped, and Arya almost lost her feet again. Sandor
Clegane lifted her onto Stranger's back as if she weighed no more than a doll. The boatmen stared at
them with dull, exhausted eyes, all but the bent-backed man, who held his hand out. "Six dragons," he
demanded. "Three for the passage, and three for the man I lost."
Sandor Clegane rummaged in his pouch and shoved a crumpled wad of parchment into the boatman's
palm. "There. Take ten."
"Ten?" The ferryman was confused. "What's this, now?"
"A dead man's note, good for nine thousand dragons or nearabouts." The Hound swung up into the


saddle behind Arya, and smiled down unpleasantly. "Ten of it is yours. I'll be back for the rest one day,
so see you don't go spending it."
The man squinted down at the parchment. "Writing. What good's writing? You promised gold. Knight's
honor, you said."
"Knights have no bloody honor. Time you learned that, old man." The Hound gave Stranger the spur and
galloped off through the rain. The ferrymen threw curses at their backs, and one or two threw stones.
Clegane ignored rocks and words alike, and before long they were lost in the gloom of the trees, the river
a dwindling roar behind them. "The ferry won't cross back till morning," he said, "and that lot won't be
taking paper promises from the next fools to come along. If your friends are chasing us, they're going to
need to be bloody strong swimmers."
Arya huddled down and held her tongue. Valar morghulis, she thought sullenly. Ser flyn, Ser Meryn,
King loffrey, Queen Cersei. Dunsen, Polliver, Raff the Sweetling, Ser Gregor and the Tickler. And the
Hound, the Hound, the Hound.
By the time the rain stopped and the clouds broke, she was shivering and sneezing so badly that Clegane
called a halt for the night, and even tried to make a fire. The wood they gathered proved too wet, though.
Nothing he tried was enough to make the spark catch. Finally he kicked it all apart in disgust. "Seven
bloody hells," he swore. "I hate fires."
They sat on damp rocks beneath an oak tree, listening to the slow patter of water dripping from the
leaves as they ate a cold supper of hardbread, moldy cheese, and smoked sausage. The Hound sliced
the meat with his dagger, and narrowed his eyes when he caught Arya looking at the knife. "Don't even
think about it."
"I wasn't," she lied.
He snorted to show what he thought of that, but he gave her a thick slice of sausage. Arya worried it
with her teeth, watching him all the while. "I never beat your sister," the Hound said. "But I'll beat you if
you make me. Stop trying to think up ways to kill me. None of it will do you a bit of good."
She had nothing to say to that. She gnawed on the sausage and stared at him coldly. Hard as stone, she
thought.
"At least you look at my face. I'll give you that, you little she-wolf. How do you like it?"
"I don't. It's all burned and ugly."
Clegane offered her a chunk of cheese on the point of his dagger. "You're a little fool. What good would
it do you if you did get away? You'd just get caught by someone worse."
"I would not," she insisted. "There is no one worse."
"You never knew my brother. Gregor once killed a man for snoring. His own man." When he grinned,
the burned side of his face pulled tight, twisting his mouth in a queer unpleasant way. He had no lips on
that side, and only the stump of an ear.
"I did so know your brother." Maybe the Mountain was worse, now that Arya thought about it. "Him
and Dunsen and Polliver, and Raff the Sweetling and the Tickler."


The Hound seemed surprised. "And how would Ned Stark's precious little daughter come to know the
likes of them? Gregor never brings his pet rats to court."
"I know them from the village." She ate the cheese, and reached for a hunk of hardbread. "The village by
the lake where they caught Gendry, me, and Hot Pie. They caught Lommy Greenhands too, but Raff the
Sweetling killed him because his leg was hurt."
Clegane's mouth twitched. "Caught you? My brother caught you?" That made him laugh, a sour sound,
part rumble and part snarl. "Gregor never knew what he had, did he? He couldn't have, or he would have
dragged you back kicking and screaming to King's Landing and dumped you in Cersei's lap. Oh, that's
bloody sweet. I'll be sure and tell him that, before I cut his heart out."
It wasn't the first time he had talked of killing the Mountain. "But he's your brother," Arya said dubiously.
"Didn't you ever have a brother you wanted to kill?" He laughed again. "Or maybe a sister?" He must
have seen something in her face then, for he leaned closer. "Sansa. That's it, isn't it? The wolf bitch wants
to kill the pretty bird."
"No," Arya spat back at him. "Id like to kill you."
"Because I hacked your little friend in two? I've killed a lot more than him, I promise you. You think that
makes me some monster. Well, maybe it does, but I saved your sister's life too. The day the mob pulled
her off her horse, I cut through them and brought her back to the castle, else she would have gotten what
Lollys Stokeworth got. And she sang for me. You didn't know that, did you? Your sister sang me a
sweet little song."
"You're lying," she said at once.
"You don't know half as much as you think you do. The Blackwater? Where in seven hells do you think
we are? Where do you think we're going?"
The scorn in his voice made her hesitate. "Back to King's Landing," she said. "You're bringing me to
Joffrey and the queen." That was wrong, she realized all of a sudden, just from the way he asked the
questions. But she had to say something.
"Stupid blind little wolf bitch." His voice was rough and hard as an
iron rasp. "Bugger Joffrey, bugger the queen, and bugger that twisted little gargoyle she calls a brother.
I'm done with their city, done with their Kingsguard, done with Lannisters. What's a dog to do with lions,
I ask you?" He reached for his waterskin, took a long pull. As he wiped his mouth, he offered the skin to
Arya and said, "The river was the Trident, girl. The Trident, not the Blackwater. Make the map in your
head, if you can. On the morrow we should reach the kingsroad. We'll make good time after that, straight
up to the Twins. It's going to be me who hands you over to that mother of yours. Not the noble lightning
lord or that flaming fraud of a priest, the monster." He grinned at the look on her face. "You think your
outlaw friends are the only ones can smell a ransom? Dondarrion took my gold, so I took you. You're
worth twice what they stole from me, I'd say. Maybe even more if I sold you back to the Lannisters like
you fear, but I won't. Even a dog gets tired of being kicked. If this Young Wolf has the wits the gods
gave a toad, he'll make me a lordling and beg me to enter his service. He needs me, though he may not
know it yet. Maybe I'll even kill Gregor for him, he'd like that."


"He'll never take you," she spat back. "Not you."
"Then I'll take as much gold as I can carry, laugh in his face, and ride off. if he doesn't take me, he'd be
wise to kill me, but he won't. Too much his father's son, from what I hear. Fine with me. Either way I
win. And so do you, she-wolf. So stop whimpering and snapping at me, I'm sick of it. Keep your mouth
shut and do as I tell you, and maybe we'll even be in time for your uncle's bloody wedding."
Chapter 48
JON
The mare was blown, but Jon could not let up on her. He had to reach the Wall before the Magnar. He
would have slept in the saddle if he'd had one; lacking that, it was hard enough to stay ahorse while
awake. His wounded leg grew ever more painful. He dare not rest long enough to let it heal. Instead he
ripped it open anew each time he mounted up.
When he crested a rise and saw the brown rutted kingsroad before him wending its way north through
hill and plain, he patted the mare's neck and said, "Now all we need do is follow the road, girl. Soon the
Wall." His leg had gone as stiff as wood by then, and fever had made him so light-headed that twice he
found himself riding in the wrong direction.
Soon the Wall. He pictured his friends drinking mulled wine in the common hall. Hobb would be with his
kettles, Donal Noye at his forge, Maester Aemon in his rooms beneath the rookery. And the Old Bear?
Sam, Grenn, Dolorous Edd, Dywen with his wooden teeth ... Jon could only pray that some had escaped
the Fist.
Ygritte was much in his thoughts as well. He remembered the smell of her hair, the warmth of her body
... and the look on her face as she slit the old man's throat. You were wrong to love her, a voice
whispered. You were wrong to leave her, a different voice insisted. He wondered if his father had been
torn the same way, when he'd left Jon's mother to return to Lady Catelyn. He was pledged to Lady
Stark, and I am pledged to the Night's Watch.
He almost rode through Mole's Town, so feverish that he did not know where he was. Most of the
village was hidden underground, only a handful
of small hovels to be seen by the light of the waning moon. The brothel was a shed no bigger than a
privy, its red lantern creaking in the wind, a bloodshot eye peering through the blackness. Jon dismounted
at the adjoining stable, half-stumbling from the mare's back as he shouted two boys awake. "I need a
fresh mount, with saddle and bridle," he told them, in a tone that brooked no argument. They brought him
that; a skin of wine as well, and half a loaf of brown bread. "Wake the village," he told them. "Warn
them. There are wildlings south of the Wall. Gather your goods and make for Castle Black." He pulled
himself onto the black gelding they'd given him, gritting his teeth at the pain in his leg, and rode hard for
the north.
As the stars began to fade in the eastern sky, the Wall appeared before him, rising above the trees and
the morning mists. Moonlight glimmered pale against the ice. He urged the gelding on, following the
muddy slick road until he saw the stone towers and timbered halls of Castle Black huddled like broken


toys beneath the great cliff of ice. By then the Wall glowed pink and purple with the first light of dawn.
No sentries challenged him as he rode past the outbuildings. No one came forth to bar his way. Castle
Black seemed as much a ruin as Greyguard. Brown brittle weeds grew between cracks in the stones of
the courtyards. Old snow covered the roof of the Flint Barracks and lay in drifts against the north side of
Hardin's Tower, where Jon used to sleep before being made the Old Bear's steward. Fingers of soot
streaked the Lord Commander's Tower where the smoke had boiled from the windows. Mormont had
moved to the King's Tower after the fire, but Jon saw no lights there either. From the ground he could
not tell if there were sentries walking the Wall seven hundred feet above, but he saw no one on the huge
switchback stair that climbed the south face of the ice like some great wooden thunderbolt.
There was smoke rising from the chimney of the armory, though; only a wisp, almost invisible against the
grey northern sky, but it was enough. Jon dismounted and limped toward it. Warmth poured out the open
door like the hot breath of summer. Within, one-armed Donal Noye was working his bellows at the fire.
He looked up at the noise. "Jon Snow?"
"None else." Despite fever, exhaustion, his leg, the Magnar, the old man, Ygritte, Mance, despite it all,
Jon smiled. It was good to be back, good to see Noye with his big belly and pinned-up sleeve, his jaw
bristling with black stubble.
The smith released his grip on the bellows. "Your face. . .
He had almost forgotten about his face. "A skinchanger tried to rip out my eye."
Noye frowned. "Scarred or smooth, it's a face I thought I'd seen the last of. We heard you'd gone over
to Mance Raydar."
Jon grasped the door to stay upright. "Who told you that?"
"Jarman Buckwell. He returned a fortnight past. His scouts claim they saw you with their own eyes,
riding along beside the wildling column and wearing a sheepskin cloak." Noye eyed him. "I see the last
part's true."
"It's all true," Jon confessed. "As far as it goes."
"Should I be pulling down a sword to gut you, then?"
"No. I was acting on orders. Qhorin Halfhand's last command. Noye, where is the garrison?"
"Defending the Wall against your wildling friends."
"Yes, but where?"
"Everywhere. Harma Dogshead was seen at Woodswatch-by-the-Pool, Rattleshirt at Long Barrow, the
Weeper near Icemark. All along the Wall ... they're here, they're there, they're climbing near Queensgate,
they're hacking at the gates of Greyguard, they're massing against Eastwatch ... but one glimpse of a
black cloak and they're gone. Next day they're somewhere else."
Jon swallowed a groan. "Feints. Mance wants us to spread ourselves thin, don't you see?" And Bowen
Marsh has obliged him. "The gate is here. The attack is here."


Noye crossed the room. "Your leg is drenched in blood."
Jon looked down dully. It was true. His wound had opened again. "An arrow wound..."
"A wildling arrow." It was not a question. Noye had only one arm, but that was thick with muscle. He
slid it under Jon's to help support him. "You're white as milk, and burning hot besides. I'm taking you to
Aemon."
"There's no time. There are wildlings south of the Wall, coming up from Queenscrown to open the gate."
"How many?" Noye half-carried Jon out the door.
"A hundred and twenty, and well armed for wildlings. Bronze armor, some bits of steel. How many men
are left here?"
"Forty odd," said Donal Noye. "The crippled and infirm, and some green boys still in training."
"If Marsh is gone, who did he name as castellan?"
The armorer laughed. "Ser Wynton, gods preserve him. Last knight in the castle and all. The thing is,
Stout seems to have forgotten and no one's been rushing to remind him. I suppose I'm as much a
commander as we have now. The meanest of the cripples."
That was for the good, at least. The one-armed armorer was hard headed, tough, and well seasoned in
war. Ser Wynton Stout, on the other hand ... well, he had been a good man once, everyone agreed, but
he had been eighty years a ranger, and both strength and wits were gone. Once he'd fallen asleep at
supper and almost drowned in a bowl of pea soup.
"Where's your wolf?" Noye asked as they crossed the yard.
"Ghost. I had to leave him when I climbed the Wall. I'd hoped he'd make his way back here."
"I'm sorry, lad. There's been no sign of him." They limped up to the maester's door, in the long wooden
keep beneath the rookery. The armorer gave it a kick. "Glydas!"
After a moment a stooped, round-shouldered little man in black peered out. His small pink eyes
widened at the sight of Jon. "Lay the lad down, I'll fetch the maester."
A fire was burning in the hearth, and the room was almost stuffy. The warmth made Jon sleepy. As soon
as Noye eased him down onto his back, he closed his eyes to stop the world from spinning. He could
hear the ravens quorking and complaining in the rookery above. "Snow," one bird was saying. "Snow,
snow, snow." That was Sam's doing, Jon remembered. Had Samwell Tarly made it home safely, he
wondered, or only the birds?
Maester Aemon was not long in coming. He moved slowly, one spotted hand on Clydas's arm as he
shuffled forward with small careful steps. Around his thin neck his chain hung heavy, gold and silver links
glinting amongst iron, lead, tin, and other base metals. "Jon Snow," he said, "you must tell me all you've
seen and done when you are stronger. Donal, put a kettle of wine on the fire, and my irons as well. I will
want them red-hot. Clydas, I shall need that good sharp knife of yours." The maester was more than a
hundred years old; shrunken, frail, hairless, and quite blind. But if his milky eyes saw nothing, his wits
were still as sharp as they had ever been.


"There are wildlings coming," Jon told him, as Clydas ran a blade up the leg of his breeches, slicing the
heavy black cloth, crusty with old blood and sodden with new. "From the south. We climbed the Wall..."
Maester Aemon gave Jon's crude bandage a sniff when Clydas cut it away. "We?"
"I was with them. Qhorin Halfhand commanded me to join them." Jon winced as the maester's finger
explored his wound, poking and prodding. "The Magnar of Therm - aaaaah, that hurts." He clenched his
teeth. "Where is the Old Bear?"
"Jon ... it grieves me to say, but Lord Commander Mormont was murdered at Craster's Keep, at the
hands of his Sworn Brothers."
"Bro ... our own men?" Aemon's words hurt a hundred times worse than his fingers. Jon remembered
the Old Bear as last he'd seen him, standing before his tent with his raven on his arm croaking for corn.
Mormont gone? He had feared it ever since he'd seen the aftermath of battle on the Fist, yet it was no
less a blow. "Who was it? Who turned on him?"
"Garth of Oldtown, Ollo Lophand, Dirk ... thieves, cowards and killers, the lot of them. We should have
seen it coming. The Watch is not what it was. Too few honest men to keep the rogues in line." Donal
Noye turned the maester's blades in the fire. "A dozen true men made it back. Dolorous Edd, Giant, your
friend the Aurochs. We had the tale from them."
Only a dozen? Two hundred men had left Castle Black with Lord Commander Mormont, two hundred
of the Watch's best. "Does this mean Marsh is Lord Commander, then?" The Old Pomegranate was
amiable, and a diligent First Steward, but he was woefully ill-suited to face a wildling host.
"For the nonce, until we can hold a choosing," said Maester Aemon. "Clydas, bring me the flask."
A choosing. With Qhorin Halfhand and Ser Jaremy Rykker both dead and Ben Stark still missing, who
was there? Not Bowen Marsh or Ser Wynton Stout, that was certain. Had Thoren Smallwood survived
the Fist, or Ser Ottyn Wythers? No, it will be Cotter Pyke or Ser Denys Mallister. Which, though? The
commanders at the Shadow Tower and Eastwatch were good men, but very different; Ser Denys courtly
and cautious, as chivalrous as he was elderly, Pyke younger, bastard-born, rough-tongued, and bold to a
fault. Worse, the two men despised each other. The Old Bear had always kept them far apart, at
opposite ends of the Wall. The Mallisters had a bone-deep mistrust of the ironborn, Jon knew.
A stab of pain reminded him of his own woes. The maester squeezed his hand. "Clydas is bringing milk
of the poppy."
Jon tried to rise. "I don't need - "
"You do," Aemon said firmly. "This will hurt."
Donal Noye crossed the room and shoved Jon back onto his back. "Be still, or I'll tie you down." Even
with only one arm, the smith handled him as if he were a child. Clydas returned with a green flask and a
rounded stone cup. Maester Aemon poured it full. "Drink this."
Jon had bitten his lip in his struggles. He could taste blood mingled with the thick, chalky potion. It was
all he could do not to retch it back up.


Clydas brought a basin of warm water, and Maester Aemon washed the pus and blood from his wound.
Gentle as he was, even the lightest touch made Jon want to scream. "The Magnar's men are disciplined,
and they have bronze armor," he told them. Talking helped keep his mind off his leg.
"The Magnar's a lord on Skagos," Noye said. "There were Skagossons at Eastwatch when I first came
to the Wall, I remember hearing them talk of him."
"Jon was using the word in its older sense, I think," Maester Aemon said, "not as a family name but as a
title. it derives from the Old Tongue."
"It means lord," Jon agreed. "Styr is the Magnar of some place called Therm, in the far north of the
Frostfangs. He has a hundred of his own men, and a score of raiders who know the Gift almost as well
as we do. Mance never found the horn, though, that's something. The Horn of Winter, that's what he was
digging for up along the Milkwater."
Maester Aemon paused, washcloth in hand. "The Horn of Winter is an ancient legend. Does the
King-beyond-theWall truly believe that such a thing exists?"
"They all do," said Jon. "Ygritte said they opened a hundred graves ... graves of kings and heroes, all
over the valley of the Milkwater, but they never. . ."
"Who is Ygritte?" Donal Noye asked pointedly.
"A woman of the free folk." How could he explain Ygritte to them? She's warm and smart and funny and
she can kiss a man or slit his throat. "She's with Styr, but she's not ... she's young, only a girl, in truth,
wild, but she..." She killed an old man for building a fire. His tongue felt thick and clumsy. The milk of the
poppy was clouding his wits. "I broke my vows with her. I never meant to, but..." It was wrong. Wrong
to love her, wrong to leave her... "I wasn't strong enough. The Halfhand commanded me, ride with them,
watch, I must not balk, I. . .
His head felt as if it were packed with wet wool.
Maester Aemon sniffed Jon's wound again. Then he put the bloody cloth back in the basin and said,
"Donal, the hot knife, if you please. I shall need you to hold him still."
I will not scream, Jon told himself when he saw the blade glowing red hot. But he broke that vow as
well. Donal Noye held him down, while Clydas helped guide the maester's hand. Jon did not move,
except to pound his fist against the table, again and again and again. The pain was so huge he felt small
and weak and helpless inside it, a child whimpering in the dark. Ygritte, he thought, when the stench of
burning flesh was in his nose and his own shriek echoing in her ears. Ygritte, I had to. For half a heartbeat
the agony started to ebb. But then the iron touched him once again, and he fainted.
When his eyelids fluttered open, he was wrapped in thick wool and floating. He could not seem to
move, but that did not matter. For a time he dreamed that Ygritte was with him, tending him with gentle
hands. Finally he closed his eyes and slept.
The next waking was not so gentle. The room was dark, but under the blankets the pain was back, a
throbbing in his leg that turned into a hot knife at the least motion. Jon learned that the hard way when he
tried
to see if he still had a leg. Gasping, he swallowed a scream and made another fist.


"Jon?" A candle appeared, and a well-remembered face was looking down on him, big ears and all.
"You shouldn't move."
"Pyp?" Jon reached up, and the other boy clasped his hand and gave it a squeeze. "I thought you'd gone
. . . "
". . . with the Old Pomegranate? No, he thinks I'm too small and green. Grenn's here too."
"I'm here too." Grenn stepped to the other side of the bed. "I fell asleep."
Jon's throat was dry. "Water," he gasped. Grenn brought it, and held it to his lips. "I saw the Fist," he
said, after a long swallow. "The blood, and the dead horses ... Noye said a dozen made it back ... who?"
"Dywen did. Giant, Dolorous Edd, Sweet Donnel Hill, Ulmer, Left Hand Lew, Garth Greyfeather. Four
or five more. Me."
"Sam?"
Grenn looked away. "He killed one of the Others, Jon. I saw it. He stabbed him with that dragonglass
knife you made him, and we started calling him Sam the Slayer. He hated that."
Sam the Slayer. Jon could hardly imagine a less likely warrior than Sam Tarly. "What happened to him?"
"We left him." Grenn sounded miserable. "I shook him and screamed at him, even slapped his face.
Giant tried to drag him to his feet, but he was too heavy. Remember in training how he'd curl up on the
ground and lie there whimpering? At Craster's he wouldn't even whimper. Dirk and Ollo were tearing up
the walls looking for food, Garth and Garth were fighting, some of the others were raping Craster's
wives. Dolorous Edd figured Dirk's bunch would kill all the loyal men to keep us from telling what they'd
done, and they had us two to one. We left Sam with the Old Bear. He wouldn't move, Jon."
You were his brother, he almost said. How could you leave him amongst wildlings and murderers?
"He might still be alive," said Pyp. "He might surprise us all and come riding up tomorrow."
"With Mance Rayder's head, aye." Grenn was trying to sound cheerful, Jon could tell. "Sam the Slayer!"
Jon tried to sit again. It was as much a mistake as the first time. He cried out, cursing.
"Grenn, go wake Maester Aemon," said Pyp. "Tell him Jon needs more milk of the poppy."
Yes, Jon thought. "No," he said. "The Magnar..."
"We know," said Pyp. "The sentries on the Wall have been told to keep one eye on the south, and
Donal Noye dispatched some men to
Weatherback Ridge to watch the kingsroad. Maester Aemon's sent birds to Eastwatch and the Shadow
Tower too."
Maester Aemon shuffled to the bedside, one hand on Grenn's shoulder. "Jon, be gentle with yourself. It
is good that you have woken, but you must give yourself time to heal. We drowned the wound with


boiling wine, and closed you up with a poultice of nettle, mustard seed and moldy bread, but unless you
rest. . . "
"I can't." Jon fought through the pain to sit. "Mance will be here soon ... thousands of men, giants,
mammoths ... has word been sent to Winterfell? To the king?" Sweat dripped off his brow. He closed his
eyes a moment.
Grenn gave Pyp a strange look. "He doesn't know."
"Jon," said Maester Aemon, "much and more happened while you were away, and little of it good.
Balon Greyjoy has crowned himself again and sent his longships against the north. Kings sprout like
weeds at every hand and we have sent appeals to all of them, yet none will come. They have more
pressing uses for their swords, and we are far off and forgotten. And Winterfell ... Jon, be strong ...
Winterfell is no more..."
"No more?" Jon stared at Aemon's white eyes and wrinkled face. "My brothers are at Winterfell. Bran
and Rickon. . ."
The maester touched his brow. "I am so very sorry, Jon. Your brothers died at the command of Theon
Greyjoy, after he took Winterfell in his father's name. When your father's bannermen threatened to retake
it, he put the castle to the torch."
"Your brothers were avenged," Grenn said. "Bolton's son killed all the ironmen, and it's said he's flaying
Theon Greyjoy inch by inch for what he did."
"I'm sorry, Jon." Pyp squeezed his shoulder. "We are all."
Jon had never liked Theon Greyjoy, but he had been their father's ward. Another spasm of pain twisted
up his leg, and the next he knew he was flat on his back again. "There's some mistake," he insisted. "At
Queenscrown I saw a direwolf, a grey direwolf ... grey.. . it knew me." If Bran was dead, could some
part of him live on in his wolf, as Orell lived within his eagle?
"Drink this." Grenn held a cup to his lips. Jon drank. His head was full of wolves and eagles, the sound
of his brothers' laughter. The faces above him began to blur and fade. They can't be dead. Theon would
never do that. And Winterfell ... grey granite, oak andiron, crows wheeling around the towers, steam
rising off the hot pools in the godswood, the stone kings sitting on their thrones ... how could Winterfell
be gone?
When the dreams took him, he found himself back home once more, splashing in the hot pools beneath a
huge white weirwood that had his father's face. Ygritte was with him, laughing at him, shedding her skins
till she was naked as her name day, trying to kiss him, but he couldn't, not with his father watching. He
was the blood of Winterfell, a man of the Night's Watch. I will not father a bastard, he told her. I will not.
I will not. "You know nothing, Jon Snow," she whispered, her skin dissolving in the hot water, the flesh
beneath sloughing off her bones until only skull and skeleton remained, and the pool bubbled thick and
red.
Chapter 49


Catelyn
They heard the Green Fork before they saw it, an endless susurrus, like the growl of some great beast.
The river was a boiling torrent, half again as wide as it had been last year, when Robb had divided his
army here and vowed to take a Frey to bride as the price of his crossing. He needed Lord Walder and
his bridge then, and he needs them even more now. Catelyn's heart was full of misgivings as she watched
the murky green waters swirl past. There is no way we will ford this, nor swim across, and it could be a
moon's turn before these waters fall again.
As they neared the Twins, Robb donned his crown and summoned Catelyn and Edmure to ride beside
him. Ser Raynald Westerling bore his banner, the direwolf of Stark on its ice-white field.
The gatehouse towers emerged from the rain like ghosts, hazy grey apparitions that grew more solid the
closer they rode. The Frey stronghold was not one castle but two; mirror images in wet stone standing on
opposite sides of the water, linked by a great arched bridge. From the center of its span rose the Water
Tower, the river running straight and swift below. Channels had been cut from the banks, to form moats
that made each twin an island. The rains had turned the moats to shallow lakes.
Across the turbulent waters, Catelyn could see several thousand men encamped around the eastern
castle, their banners hanging like so many drowned cats from the lances outside their tents. The rain made
it impossible to distinguish colors and devices. Most were grey, it seemed to her, though beneath such
skies the whole world seemed grey.
"Tread lightly here, Robb," she cautioned her son. "Lord Walder has a thin skin and a sharp tongue, and
some of these sons of his will doubtless take after their father. You must not let yourself be provoked."
"I know the Freys, Mother. I know how much I wronged them, and how much I need them. I shall be as
sweet as a septon."
Catelyn shifted her seat uncomfortably. "If we are offered refreshment when we arrive, on no account
refuse. Take what is offered, and eat and drink where all can see. If nothing is offered, ask for bread and
cheese and a cup of wine."
"I'm more wet than hungry..."
"Robb, listen to me. Once you have eaten of his bread and salt, you have the guest right, and the laws of
hospitality protect you beneath his roof."
Robb looked more amused than afraid. "I have an army to protect me, Mother, I don't need to trust in
bread and salt. But if it pleases Lord Walder to serve me stewed crow smothered in maggots, I'll eat it
and ask for a second bowl."
Four Freys rode out from the western gatehouse, wrapped in heavy cloaks of thick grey wool. Catelyn
recognized Ser Ryman, son of the late Ser Stevron, Lord Walder's firstborn. With his father dead,
Ryman was heir to the Twins. The face she saw beneath his hood was fleshy, broad, and stupid. The
other three were likely his own sons, Lord Walder's great grandsons.
Edmure confirmed as much. "Edwyn is eldest, the pale slender man with the constipated look. The wiry
one with the beard is Black Walder, a nasty bit of business. Petyr is on the bay, the lad with the


unfortunate face. Petyr Pimple, his brothers call him. Only a year or two older than Robb, but Lord
Walder married him off at ten to a woman thrice his age. Gods, I hope Roslin doesn't take after him."
They halted to let their hosts come to them. Robb's banner drooped on its staff, and the steady sound of
rainfall mingled with the rush of the swollen Green Fork on their right. Grey Wind edged forward, tail
stiff, watching through slitted eyes of dark gold. When the Freys were a halfdozen yards away Catelyn
heard him growl, a deep rumble that seemed almost one with rush of the river. Robb looked startled.
"Grey Wind, to me. To me!"
Instead the direwolf leapt forward, snarling.
Ser Ryman's palfrey shied off with a whinny of fear, and Petyr Pimple's reared and threw him. Only
Black Walder kept his mount in hand. He reached for the hilt of his sword. "No!" Robb was shouting.
"Grey Wind, here. Here." Catelyn spurred between the direwolf and the horses. Mud spattered from the
hooves of her mare as she cut in front of Grey Wind. The wolf veered away, and only then seemed to
hear Robb calling.
"Is this how a Stark makes amends?" Black Walder shouted, with naked steel in hand. "A poor greeting
I call it, to set your wolf upon us. Is this why you've come?"
Ser Ryman had dismounted to help Petyr Pimple back to his feet. The lad was muddy, but unhurt.
"I've come to make my apology for the wrong I did your House, and to see my uncle wed." Robb
swung down from the saddle. "Petyr, take my horse. Yours is almost back to the stable."
Petyr looked to his father and said, "I can ride behind one of my brothers."
The Freys made no sign of obeisance. "You come late," Ser Ryman declared.
"The rains delayed us," said Robb. "I sent a bird."
"I do not see the woman."
By the woman Ser Ryman meant Jeyne Westerling, all knew. Lady Catelyn smiled apologetically.
"Queen Jeyne was weary after so much travel, sers. No doubt she will be pleased to visit when times are
more settled."
"My grandfather will be displeased." Though Black Walder had sheathed his sword, his tone was no
friendlier. "I've told him much of the lady, and he wished to behold her with his own eyes."
Edwyn cleared his throat. "We have chambers prepared for you in the Water Tower, Your Grace," he
told Robb with careful courtesy, "as well as for Lord Tully and Lady Stark. Your lords bannermen are
also welcome to shelter under our roof and partake of the wedding feast."
"And my men?" asked Robb.
"My lord grandfather regrets that he cannot feed nor house so large a host. We have been sore pressed
to find fodder and provender for our own levies. Nonetheless, your men shall not be neglected. If they
will cross and set up their camp beside our own, we will bring out enough casks of wine and ale for all to
drink the health of Lord Edmure and his bride. We have thrown up three great feast tents on the far
bank, to provide them with some shelter from the rains."


"Your lord father is most kind. My men will thank him. They have had a long wet ride."
Edmure Tully edged his horse forward. "When shall I meet my betrothed?"
"She waits for you within," promised Edwyn Frey. "You will forgive her if she seems shy, I know. She
has been awaiting this day most anxiously, poor maid. But perhaps we might continue this out of the
rain?"
"Truly." Ser Ryman mounted up again, pulling Petyr Pimple up behind him. "If you would follow me, my
father awaits." He turned the palfrey's head back toward the Twins.
Edmure fell in beside Catelyn. "The Late Lord Frey might have seen fit to welcome us in person," he
complained. "I am his liege lord as well as his son-to-be, and Robb's his king."
"When you are one-and-ninety, Brother, see how eager you are to go riding in the rain." Yet she
wondered if that was the whole truth of it. Lord Walder normally went about in a covered litter, which
would have kept the worst of the rain off him. A deliberate slight? If so, it might be the first of many yet to
come.
There was more trouble at the gatehouse. Grey Wind balked in the middle of the drawbridge, shook the
rain off, and howled at the portcullis. Robb whistled impatiently. "Grey Wind. What is it? Grey Wind,
with me." But the direwolf only bared his teeth. He does not like this place, Catelyn thought. Robb had to
squat and speak softly to the wolf before he would consent to pass beneath the portcullis. By then Lame
Lothar and Walder Rivers had come up. "It's the sound of the water he fears," Rivers said. "Beasts know
to avoid the river in flood."
"A dry kennel and a leg of mutton will see him right again," said Lothar cheerfully. "Shall I summon our
master of hounds?"
"He's a direwolf, not a dog," said Robb, "and dangerous to men he does not trust. Ser Raynald, stay
with him. I won't take him into Lord Walder's hall like this."
Deftly done, Catelyn decided. Robb keeps the Westerling out of Lord Walder's sight as well.
Gout and brittle bones had taken their toll of old Walder Frey. They found him propped up in his high
seat with a cushion beneath him and an ermine robe across his lap. His chair was black oak, its back
carved into the semblance of two stout towers joined by an arched bridge, so massive that its embrace
turned the old man into a grotesque child. There was something of the vulture about Lord Walder, and
rather more of the weasel. His bald head, spotted with age, thrust out from his scrawny shoulders on a
long pink neck. Loose skin dangled beneath his receding chin, his eyes were runny and clouded, and his
toothless mouth moved constantly, sucking at the empty air as a babe sucks at his mother's breast.
The eighth Lady Frey stood beside Lord Walder's high seat. At his feet sat a somewhat younger version
of himself, a stooped thin man of fifty whose costly garb of blue wool and grey satin was strangely
accented by a crown and collar ornamented with tiny brass bells. The likeness between him and his lord
was striking, save for their eyes; Lord Frey's small, dim, and suspicious, the other's large, amiable, and
vacant. Catelyn recalled that one of Lord Walder's brood had fathered a halfwit long years ago. During
past visits, the Lord of the Crossing had always taken care to hide this one away. Did he always wear a
fool's crown, or is that meant as mockery of Robb? It was a question she dare not ask.


Frey sons, daughters, children, grandchildren, husbands, wives, and servants crowded the rest of the
hall. But it was the old man who spoke. "You will forgive me if I do not kneel, I know. My legs no longer
work as they did, though that which hangs between'em serves well enough, heh." His mouth split in a
toothless smile as he eyed Robb's crown. "Some would say it's a poor king who crowns himself with
bronze, Your Grace."
"Bronze and iron are stronger than gold and silver," Robb answered. "The old Kings of Winter wore
such a sword-crown."
"Small good it did them when the dragons came. Heh." That heh seemed to please the lackwit, who
bobbed his head from side to side, jingling crown and collar. "Sire," Lord Walder said, "forgive my
Aegon the noise. He has less wits than a crannogman, and he's never met a king before. One of Stevron's
boys. We call him Jinglebell."
"Ser Stevron mentioned him, my lord." Robb smiled at the lackwit. "Well met, Aegon. Your father was a
brave man."
Jinglebell jingled his bells. A thin line of spit ran from one comer of his mouth when he smiled.
"Save your royal breath. You'd do as well talking to a chamberpot." Lord Walder shifted his gaze to the
others. "Well, Lady Catelyn, I see you have returned to us. And young Ser Edmure, the victor of the
Stone Mill. Lord Tully now, I'll need to remember that. You're the fifth Lord Tully I've known. I outlived
the other four, heh. Your bride's about here somewhere. I suppose you want a look at her."
"I would, my lord."
"Then you'll have it. But clothed. She's a modest girl, and a maid. You won't see her naked till the
bedding." Lord Walder cackled. "Heh. Soon enough, soon enough." He craned his head about. "Benfrey,
go fetch your sister. Be quick about it, Lord Tully's come all the way from Riverrun." A young knight in a
quartered surcoat bowed and took his leave, and the old man turned back to Robb. "And where's your
bride, Your Grace? The fair Queen Jeyne. A Westerling of the Crag, I'm told, heh."
"I left her at Riverrun, my lord. She was too weary for more travel, as we told Ser Ryman."
"That makes me grievous sad. I wanted to behold her with mine own weak eyes. We all did, heh. Isn't
that so, my lady?"
Pale wispy Lady Frey seemed startled that she would be called upon to speak. "Y-yes, my lord. We all
so wanted to pay homage to Queen Jeyne. She must be fair to look on."
"She is most fair, my lady." There was an icy stillness in Robb's voice that reminded Catelyn of his father.
The old man either did not hear it or refused to pay it any heed. "Fairer than my own get, heh? Elsewise
how could her face and form have made the King's Grace forget his solemn promise."
Robb suffered the rebuke with dignity. "No words can set that right, I know, but I have come to make
my apologies for the wrong I did your House, and to beg for your forgiveness, my lord."
"Apologies, heh. Yes, you vowed to make one, I recall. I'm old, but I don't forget such things. Not like
some kings, it seems. The young remember nothing when they see a pretty face and a nice firm pair of
teats, isn't that so? I was the same. Some might say I still am, heh heh. They'd be wrong, though, wrong


as you were. But now you're here to make amends. It was my girls you spurned, though. Mayhaps it's
them should hear you beg for pardon, Your Grace. My maiden girls. Here, have a look at them." When
he waggled his fingers, a flurry of femininity left their places by the walls to line up beneath the dais.
jinglebell started to rise as well, his bells ringing merrily, but Lady Frey grabbed the lackwit's sleeve and
tugged him back down.
Lord Walder named the names. "My daughter Arwyn," he said of a girl of fourteen. "Shirei, my youngest
trueborn daughter. Ami and Marianne are granddaughters. I married Ami to Ser Pate of Sevenstreams,
but the Mountain killed the oaf so I got her back. That's a Cersei, but we call her Little Bee, her mother's
a Beesbury. More granddaughters. One's a Walda, and the others ... well, they have names, whatever
they are..."
"I'm Merry, Lord Grandfather," one girl said.
"You're noisy, that's for certain. Next to Noisy is my daughter Tyta. Then another Walda. Alyx, Marissa
... are you Marissa? I thought you were. She's not always bald. The maester shaved her hair off, but he
swears it will soon grow back. The twins are Serra and Sarra." He squinted down at one of the younger
girls. "Heh, are you another Walda?"
The girl could not have been more than four. "I'm Ser Aemon Rivers's Walda, lord great grandfather."
She curtsied.
"How long have you been talking? Not that you're like to have anything sensible to say, your father never
did. He's a bastard's son besides, heh. Go away, I wanted only Freys up here. The King in the North has
no interest in base stock." Lord Walder glanced to Robb, as jinglebell bobbed his head and chimed.
"There they are, all maidens. Well, and one widow, but there's some who like a woman broken in. You
might have had any one of them."
"It would have been an impossible choice, my lord," said Robb with careful courtesy. "They're all too
lovely."
Lord Walder snorted. "And they say my eyes are bad. Some will do well enough, I suppose. Others ...
well, it makes no matter. They weren't good enough for the King in the North, heh. Now what is it you
have to say?"
"My ladies." Robb looked desperately uncomfortable, but he had
known this moment must come, and he faced it without flinching. "All men should keep their word, kings
most of all. I was pledged to marry one of you and I broke that vow. The fault is not in you. What I did
was not done to slight you, but because I loved another. No words can set it right, I know, yet I come
before you to ask forgiveness, that the Freys of the Crossing and the Starks of Winterfell may once again
be friends."
The smaller girls fidgeted anxiously. Their older sisters waited for Lord Walder on his black oak throne.
Jinglebell rocked back and forth, bells chiming on collar and crown.
"Good," the Lord of the Crossing said. "That was very good, Your Grace. 'No words can set it right'
heh. Well said, well said. At the wedding feast I hope you will not refuse to dance with my daughters. It
would please an old man's heart, heh." He bobbed his wrinkled pink head up and down, in much the
same way his lackwit grandson did, though Lord Walder wore no bells. "And here she is, Lord Edmure.
My daughter Roslin, my most precious little blossom, heh."


Ser Benfrey led her into the hall. They looked enough alike to be full siblings. judging from their age,
both were children of the sixth Lady Frey; a Rosby, Catelyn seemed to recall.
Roslin was small for her years, her skin as white as if she had just risen from a milk bath. Her face was
comely, with a small chin, delicate nose, and big brown eyes. Thick chestnut hair fell in loose waves to a
waist so tiny that Edmure would be able to put his hands around it. Beneath the lacy bodice of her pale
blue gown, her breasts looked small but shapely.
"Your Grace." The girl went to her knees. "Lord Edmure, I hope I am not a disappointment to you."
Far from it, thought Catelyn. Her brother's face had lit up at the sight of her. "You are a delight to me,
my lady," Edmure said. "And ever will be, I know."
Roslin had a small gap between two of her front teeth that made her shy with her smiles, but the flaw
was almost endearing. Pretty enough, Catelyn thought, but so small, and she comes of Rosby stock. The
Rosbys had never been robust. She much preferred the frames of some of the older girls in the hall;
daughters or granddaughters, she could not be sure. They had a Crakehall look about them, and Lord
Walder's third wife had been of that House. Wide hips to bear children, big breasts to nurse them, strong
arms to carry them. The Grakehalls have always been a bigboned family, and strong.
"My lord is kind," the Lady Roslin said to Edmure.
"My lady is beautiful." Edmure took her hand and drew her to her feet. "But why are you crying?"
"For joy," Roslin said. "I weep for joy, my lord."
"Enough," Lord Walder broke in. "You may weep and whisper after you're wed, heh. Benfrey, see your
sister back to her chambers, she has a wedding to prepare for. And a bedding, heh, the sweetest part.
For all, for all." His mouth moved in and out. "We'll have music, such sweet music, and wine, heh, the red
will run, and we'll put some wrongs aright. But now you're weary, and wet as well, dripping on my floor.
There's fires waiting for you, and hot mulled wine, and baths if you want 'em. Lothar, show our guests to
their quarters."
"I need to see my men across the river, my lord," Robb said.
"They shan't get lost," Lord Walder complained. "They've crossed before, haven't they? When you came
down from the north. You wanted crossing and I gave it to you, and you never said mayhaps, heh. But
suit yourself. Lead each man across by the hand if you like, it's naught to me."
"My lord!" Catelyn had almost forgotten. "Some food would be most welcome. We have ridden many
leagues in the rain."
Walder Frey's mouth moved in and out. "Food, heh. A loaf of bread, a bite of cheese, mayhaps a
sausage."
"Some wine to wash it down," Robb said. "And salt."
"Bread and salt. Heh. Of course, of course." The old man clapped his hands together, and servants
came into the hall, bearing flagons of wine and trays of bread, cheese, and butter. Lord Walder took a
cup of red himself, and raised it high with a spotted hand. "My guests," he said. "My honored guests. Be


welcome beneath my roof, and at my table."
"We thank you for your hospitality, my lord," Robb replied. Edmure echoed him, along with the
Greatjon, Ser Marq Piper, and the others. They drank his wine and ate his bread and butter. Catelyn
tasted the wine and nibbled at some bread, and felt much the better for it. Now we should be safe, she
thought.
Knowing how petty the old man could be, she had expected their rooms to be bleak and cheerless. But
the Freys had made more than ample provision for them, it seemed. The bridal chamber was large and
richly appointed, dominated by a great featherbed with comer posts carved in the likeness of castle
towers. its draperies were Tully red and blue, a nice courtesy. Sweet-smelling carpets covered a plank
floor, and a tall shuttered window opened to the south. Catelyn's own room was smaller, but handsomely
furnished and comfortable, with a fire burning in the hearth. Lame Lothar assured them that Robb would
have an entire suite, as befit a king. "If there is anything you require, you need only tell one of the guards."
He bowed and withdrew, limping heavily as he made his way down the curving steps.
"We should post our own guards," Catelyn told her brother. She would rest easier with Stark and Tully
men outside her door. The audience with
Lord Walder had not been as painful as she feared, yet all the same she would be glad to be done with
this. A few more days, and Robb will be off to battle, and me to a comfortable captivity at Seagard.
Lord Jason would show her every courtesy, she had no doubt, but the prospect still depressed her.
She could hear the sounds of horses below as the long column of mounted men wound their way across
the bridge from castle to castle. The stones rumbled to the passage of heavy-laden wayns. Catelyn went
to the window and gazed out, to watch Robb's host emerge from the eastern twin. "The rain seems to be
lessening."
"Now that we're inside." Edmure stood before the fire, letting the warmth wash over him. "What did you
make of Roslin?"
Too small and delicate. Childbirth will go hard on her. But her brother seemed well pleased with the girl,
so all she said was, "Sweet."
"I believe she liked me. Why was she crying?"
"She's a maid on the eve of her wedding. A few tears are to be expected." Lysa had wept lakes the
morning of their own wedding, though she had managed to be dry-eyed and radiant when Jon Arryn
swept his cream-and-blue cloak about her shoulders.
"She's prettier than I dared hope." Edmure raised a hand before she could speak. "I know there are
more important things, spare me the sermon, septa. Even so ... did you see some of those other maids
Frey trotted out? The one with the twitch? Was that the shaking sickness? And those twins had more
craters and eruptions on their faces than Petyr Pimple. When I saw that lot, I knew Roslin would be bald
and one-eyed, with jinglebell's wits and Black Walder's temper. But she seems gentle as well as fair." He
looked perplexed, "Why would the old weasel refuse to let me choose unless he meant to foist off
someone hideous?"
"Your fondness for a pretty face is well known," Catelyn reminded him. "Perhaps Lord Walder actually
wants you to be happy with your bride." Or more like, he did not want you balking over a boil and
upsetting all his plans. "Or it may be that Roslin is the old man's favorite. The Lord of Riverrun is a much


better match than most of his daughters can hope for."
"True." Her brother still seemed uncertain, however. "Is it possible the girl is barren?"
"Lord Walder wants his grandson to inherit Riverrun. How would it serve him to give you a barren
wife?"
"It rids him of a daughter no one else would take."
"Small good that will do him. Walder Frey is a peevish man, not a stupid one."
"Still ... it is possible?"
"Yes," Catelyn conceded, reluctantly. "There are illnesses a girl can
have in childhood that leave her unable to conceive. There's no reason to believe that Lady Roslin was
so afflicted, though." She looked round the room. "The Freys have received us more kindly than I had
anticipated, if truth be told.,,
Edmure laughed. "A few barbed words and some unseemly gloating. From him that's courtesy. I
expected the old weasel to piss in our wine and make us praise the vintage."
The jest left Catelyn strangely disquieted. "If you will excuse me, I should change from these wet clothes.
"As you wish." Edmure yawned. "I may nap an hour."
She retreated to her own room. The chest of clothes she'd brought from Riverrun had been carried up
and laid at the foot of the bed. After she'd undressed and hung her wet clothing by the fire, she donned a
warm wool dress of Tully red and blue, washed and brushed her hair and let it dry, and went in search of
Freys.
Lord Walder's black oak throne was empty when she entered the hall, but some of his sons were
drinking by the fire. Lame Lothar rose clumsily when he saw her. "Lady Catelyn, I thought you would be
resting. How may I be of service?"
"Are these your brothers?" she asked.
"Brothers half-brothers, good brothers, and nephews. Raymund and I shared a mother. Lord Lucias
Vypren is my halfsister Lythene's husband, and Ser Damon is their son. My half-brother Ser Hosteen I
believe you know. And this is Ser Leslyn Haigh and his sons, Ser Harys and Ser Donnel."
"Well met, sers. Is Ser Perwyn about? He helped escort me to Storm's End and back, when Robb sent
me to speak with Lord Renly. I was looking forward to seeing him again."
"Perwyn is away," Lame Lothar said. "I shall give him your regards. I know he will regret having missed
you."
"Surely he will return in time for Lady Roslin's wedding?"
"He had hoped to, " said Lame Lothar, "but with this rain . . . you saw how the rivers ran, my lady."


"I did indeed," said Catelyn. "I wonder if you would be so good as to direct me to your maester?"
"Are you unwell, my lady?" asked Ser Hosteen, a powerful man with a square strong jaw.
"A woman's complaint. Nothing to concern you, ser."
Lothar, ever gracious, escorted her from the hall, up some steps, and across a covered bridge to another
stair. "You should find Maester Brenett in the turret on the top, my lady."
Catelyn half expected that the maester would be yet another son of Walder Frey's, but Brenett did not
have the look. He was a great fat man,
bald and double-chinned and none too clean, to judge from the raven droppings that stained the sleeves
of his robes, yet he seemed amiable enough. When she told him of Edmure's concerns about Lady
Roslin's fertility, he chuckled. "Your lord brother need have no fear, Lady Catelyn. She's small, I'll grant
you, and narrow in the hips, but her mother was the same, and Lady Bethany gave Lord Walder a child
every year."
"How many lived past infancy?" she asked bluntly.
"Five." He ticked them off on fingers plump as sausages. "Ser Perwyn. Ser Benfrey. Maester Willamen,
who took his vows last year and now serves Lord Hunter in the Vale. Olyvar, who squired for your son.
And Lady Roslin, the youngest. Four boys to one girl. Lord Edmure will have more sons than he knows
what to do with."
"I am sure that will please him." So the girl was like to be fertile as well as fair of face. That should put
Edmure's mind at ease. Lord Walder had left her brother no cause for complaint, so far as she could see.
Catelyn did not return to her own room after leaving the maester; instead she went to Robb. She found
Robin Flint and Ser Wendel Manderly with him, along with the Greatjon and his son, who was still called
the Smalljon though he threatened to overtop his father. They were all damp. Another man, still wetter,
stood before the fire in a pale pink cloak trimmed with white fur. "Lord Bolton," she said.
"Lady Catelyn," he replied, his voice faint, "it is a pleasure to look on you again, even in such trying
times."
"You are kind to say so." Catelyn could feel gloom in the room. Even the Greatjon seemed somber and
subdued. She looked at their grim faces and said, "What's happened?"
"Lannisters on the Trident," said Ser Wendel unhappily. "My brother is taken again."
"And Lord Bolton has brought us further word of Winterfell," Robb added. "Ser Rodrik was not the
only good man to die. Cley Cerwyn and Leobald Tallhart were slain as well."
"Cley Cerwyn was only a boy," she said, saddened. "Is this true, then? All dead, and Winterfell gone?"
Bolton's pale eyes met her own. "The ironmen burned both castle and winter town. Some of your people
were taken back to the Dreadfort by my son, Ramsay."
"Your bastard was accused of grievous crimes," Catelyn reminded him sharply. "Of murder, rape, and
worse."


"Yes," Roose Bolton said. "His blood is tainted, that cannot be denied. Yet he is a good fighter, as
cunning as he is fearless. When the ironmen cut down Ser Rodrik, and Leobald Tallhart soon after, it fell
to Ramsay to lead the battle, and he did. He swears that he shall not sheathe his sword so long as a single
Greyjoy remains in the north. Perhaps such
service might atone in some small measure for whatever crimes his bastard blood has led him to
commit." He shrugged. "Or not. When the war is done, His Grace must weigh and judge. By then I hope
to have a trueborn son by Lady Walda."
This is a cold man, Catelyn realized, not for the first time.
"Did Ramsay mention Theon Greyjoy?" Robb demanded. "Was he slain as well, or did he flee?"
Roose Bolton removed a ragged strip of leather from the pouch at his belt. "My son sent this with his
letter."
Ser Wendel turned his fat face away. Robin Flint and Smalljon Umber exchanged a look, and the
Greatjon snorted like a bull. "Is that ... skin?" said Robb.
"The skin from the little finger of Theon Greyjoy's left hand. My son is cruel, I confess it. And yet ...
what is a little skin, against the lives of two young princes? You were their mother, my lady. May I offer
you this ... small token of revenge?"
Part of Catelyn wanted to clutch the grisly trophy to her heart, but she made herself resist. "Put it away.
Please."
"Flaying Theon will not bring my brothers back," Robb said. "I want his head, not his skin."
"He is Balon Greyjoy's only living son," Lord Bolton said softly, as if they had forgotten, "and now
rightful King of the Iron Islands. A captive king has great value as a hostage."
"Hostage?" The word raised Catelyn's hackles. Hostages were oft exchanged. "Lord Bolton, I hope you
are not suggesting that we free the man who killed my sons."
"Whoever wins the Seastone Chair will want Theon Greyjoy dead," Bolton pointed out. "Even in chains,
he has a better claim than any of his uncles. Hold him, I say, and demand concessions from the ironborn
as the price of his execution."
Robb considered that reluctantly, but in the end he nodded. "Yes. Very well. Keep him alive, then. For
the present. Hold him secure at the Dreadfort till we've retaken the north."
Catelyn turned back to Roose Bolton. "Ser Wendel said something of Lannisters on the Trident?"
"He did, my lady. I blame myself. I delayed too long before leaving Harrenhal. Aenys Frey departed
several days before me and crossed the Trident at the ruby ford, though not without difficulty. But by the
time we came up the river was a torrent. I had no choice but to ferry my men across in small boats, of
which we had too few. Two-thirds of my strength was on the north side when the Lannisters attacked
those still waiting to cross. Norrey, Locke, and Burley men chiefly, with Ser Wylis Manderly and his
White Harbor knights as rear guard. I was on the wrong side of


the Trident, powerless to help them. Ser Wylis rallied our men as best he could, but Gregor Clegane
attacked with heavy horse and drove them into the river. As many drowned as were cut down. More
fled, and the rest were taken captive."
Gregor Clegane was always ill news, Catelyn reflected. Would Robb need to march south again to deal
with him? Or was the Mountain coming here? "is Clegane across the river, then?"
"No." Bolton's voice was soft, but certain. "I left six hundred men at the ford. Spearmen from the rills,
the mountains, and the White Knife, a hundred Hornwood longbows, some freeriders and hedge knights,
and a strong force of Stout and Cerwyn men to stiffen them. Ronnel Stout and Ser Kyle Condon have
the command. Ser Kyle was the late Lord Cerwyn's right hand, as I'm sure you know, my lady. Lions
swim no better than wolves. So long as the river runs high, Ser Gregor will not cross."
"The last thing we need is the Mountain at our backs when we start up the causeway," said Robb. "You
did well, my lord."
"Your Grace is too kind. I suffered grievous losses on the Green Fork, and Glover and Tallhart worse at
Duskendale."
"Duskendale." Robb made the word a curse. "Robett Glover will answer for that when I see him, I
promise you."
"A folly," Lord Bolton agreed, "but Glover was heedless after he learned that Deepwood Motte had
fallen. Grief and fear will do that to a man."
Duskendale was done and cold; it was the battles still to come that worried Catelyn. "How many men
have you brought my son?" she asked Roose Bolton pointedly.
His queer colorless eyes studied her face a moment before he answered. "Some five hundred horse and
three thousand foot, my lady. Dreadfort men, in chief, and some from Karhold. With the loyalty of the
Karstarks so doubtful now, I thought it best to keep them close. I regret there are not more."
"It should be enough," said Robb. "You will have command of my rear guard, Lord Bolton. I mean to
start for the Neck as soon as my uncle has been wedded and bedded. We're going home."
Chapter 50
ARYA
The outriders came on them an hour from the Green Fork, as the wayn was slogging down a muddy
road.
"Keep your head down and your mouth shut," the Hound warned her as the three spurred toward them;
a knight and two squires, lightly armored and mounted on fast palfreys. Clegane cracked his whip at the
team, a pair of old drays that had known better days. The wayn was creaking and swaying, its two huge
wooden wheels squeezing mud up out of the deep ruts in the road with every turn. Stranger followed,
tied to the wagon.


The big bad-tempered courser wore neither armor, barding, nor harness, and the Hound himself was
garbed in splotchy green roughspun and a soot-grey mantle with a hood that swallowed his head. So long
as he kept his eyes down you could not see his face, only the whites of his eyes peering out. He looked
like some down-at-heels farmer. A big farmer, though. And under the roughspun was boiled leather and
oiled mail, Arya knew. She looked like a farmer's son, or maybe a swineherd. And behind them were
four squat casks of salt pork and one of pickled pigs' feet.
The riders split and circled them for a look before they came up close. Clegane drew the wayn to a halt
and waited patiently on their pleasure. The knight bore spear and sword while his squires carried
longbows. The badges on their jerkins were smaller versions of the sigil sewn on their master's surcoat; a
black pitchfork on a golden bar sinister, upon a russet field. Arya had thought of revealing herself to the
first outriders they encountered, but she had always pictured grey-cloaked men with the direwolf on their
breasts. She might have risked it even if they'd worn
the Umber giant or the Glover fist, but she did not know this pitchfork knight or whom he served. The
closest thing to a pitchfork she had ever seen at Winterfell was the trident in the hand of Lord Manderly's
merman.
"You have business at the Twins?" the knight asked.
"Salt pork for the wedding feast, if it please you, ser." The Hound mumbled his reply, his eyes down, his
face hidden.
"Salt pork never pleases me." The pitchfork knight gave Clegane only the most cursory glance, and paid
no attention at all to Arya, but he looked long and hard at Stranger. The stallion was no plow horse, that
was plain at a glance. One of the squires almost wound up in the mud when the big black courser bit at
his own mount. "How did you come by this beast?" the pitchfork knight demanded.
"M'lady told me to bring him, ser," Clegane said humbly. "He's a wedding gift for young Lord Tully."
"What lady? Who is it you serve?"
"Old Lady Whent, ser."
"Does she think she can buy Harrenhal back with a horse?" the knight asked. "Gods, is there any fool
like an old fool?" Yet he waved them down the road. "Go on with you, then."
"Aye, m'lord." The Hound snapped his whip again, and the old drays resumed their weary trek. The
wheels had settled deep into the mud during the halt, and it took several moments for the team to pull
them free again. By then the outriders were riding off. Clegane gave them one last look and snorted. "Ser
Donnel Haigh," he said. "I've taken more horses off him than I can count. Armor as well. Once I near
killed him in a melee."
"How come he didn't know you, then?" Arya asked.
"Because knights are fools, and it would have been beneath him to look twice at some poxy peasant."
He gave the horses a lick with the whip. "Keep your eyes down and your tone respectful and say ser a
lot, and most knights will never see you. They pay more mind to horses than to smallfolk. He might have
known Stranger if he'd ever seen me ride him."


He would have known your face, though. Arya had no doubt of that. Sandor Clegane's bums would not
be easy to forget, once you saw them. He couldn't hide the scars behind a helm, either; not so long as the
helm was made in the shape of a snarling dog.
That was why they'd needed the wayn and the pickled pigs' feet. "I'm not going to be dragged before
your brother in chains," the Hound had told her, "and I'd just as soon not have to cut through his men to
get to him. So we play a little game."
A farmer chance-met on the kingsroad had provided them with wayn, horses, garb, and casks, though
not willingly. The Hound had taken them
at swordpoint. When the farmer cursed him for a robber, he said, "No, a forager. Be grateful you get to
keep your smallclothes. Now take those boots off. Or I'll take your legs off. Your choice." The farmer
was as big as Clegane, but all the same he chose to give up his boots and keep his legs.
Evenfall found them still trudging toward the Green Fork and Lord Frey's twin castles. I am almost there,
Arya thought. She knew she ought to be excited, but her belly was all knotted up tight. Maybe that was
just the fever she'd been fighting, but maybe not. Last night she'd had a bad dream, a terrible dream. She
couldn't remember what she'd dreamed of now, but the feeling had lingered all day. If anything, it had
only gotten stronger. Fear cuts deeper than swords. She had to be strong now, the way her father told
her. There was nothing between her and her mother but a castle gate, a river, and an army ... but it was
Robb's army, so there was no real danger there. Was there?
Roose Bolton was one of them, though. The Leech Lord, as the outlaws called him. That made her
uneasy. She had fled Harrenhal to get away from Bolton as much as from the Bloody Mummers, and
she'd had to cut the throat of one of his guards to escape. Did he know she'd done that? Or did he blame
Gendry or Hot Pie? Would he have told her mother? What would he do if he saw her? He probably
won't even know me. She looked more like a drowned rat than a lord's cupbearer these days. A
drowned boy rat. The Hound had hacked handfuls of her hair off only two days past. He was an even
worse barber than Yoren, and he'd left her half bald on one side. Robb won't know me either, I bet. Or
even Mother. She had been a little girl the last time she saw them, the day Lord Eddard Stark left
Winterfell.
They heard the music before they saw the castle; the distant rattle of drums, the brazen blare of horns,
the thin skirling of pipes faint beneath the growl of the river and the sound of the rain beating on their
heads. "We've missed the wedding," the Hound said, "but it sounds as though the feast is still going. I'll be
rid of you soon."
No, I'll be rid of you, Arya thought.
The road had been running mostly northwest, but now it turned due west between an apple orchard and
a field of drowned corn beaten down by the rain. They passed the last of the apple trees and crested a
rise, and the castles, river, and camps all appeared at once. There were hundreds of horses and
thousands of men, most of them milling about the three huge feast tents that stood side by side facing the
castle gates, like three great canvas longhalls. Robb had made his camp well back from the walls, on
higher, drier ground, but the Green Fork had overflown its bank and even claimed a few carelessly
placed tents.
The music from the castles was louder here. The sound of the drums
and horns rolled across the camp. The musicians in the nearer castle were playing a different song than


the ones in the castle on the far bank, though, so it sounded more like a battle than a song. "They're not
very good," Arya observed.
The Hound made a sound that might have been a laugh. "There's old deaf women in Lannisport
complaining of the din, I'll warrant. I'd heard Walder Frey's eyes were failing, but no one mentioned his
bloody ears."
Arya found herself wishing it were day. if the sun was out and the wind was blowing, she would have
been able to see the banners better. She would have looked for the direwolf of Stark, or maybe the
Cerwyn battleaxe or the Glover fist. But in the gloom of night all the colors looked grey. The rain had
dwindled down to a fine drizzle, almost a mist, but an earlier downpour had left the banners wet as
dishrags, sodden and unreadable.
A hedge of wagons and carts had been drawn up along the perimeter to make a crude wooden wall
against any attack. That was where the guards stopped them. The lantern their sergeant carried shed
enough light for Arya to see that his cloak was a pale pink, spotted with red teardrops. The men under
him had the Leech Lord's badge sewn over their hearts, the flayed man of the Dreadfort. Sandor Clegane
gave them the same tale he'd used on the outriders, but the Bolton sergeant was a harder sort of nut than
Ser Donnel Haigh had been. "Salt pork's no fit meat for a lord's wedding feast," he said scornfully.
"Got pickled pigs' feet too, ser."
"Not for the feast, you don't. The feast's half done. And I'm a northman, not some milksuck southron
knight."
"I was told to see the steward, or the cook. . ."
"Castle's closed. The lordlings are not to be disturbed." The sergeant considered a moment. "You can
unload by the feast tents, there." He pointed with a mailed hand. "Ale makes a man hungry, and old Frey
won't miss a few pigs' feet. He don't have the teeth for such anyhow. Ask for Sedgekins, he'll know
what's to be done with you." He barked a command, and his men rolled one of the wagons aside for
them to enter.
The Hound's whip spurred the team toward the tents. No one seemed to pay them any mind. They
splashed past rows of brightly colored pavilions, their walls of wet silk lit up like magic lanterns by lamps
and braziers inside; pink and gold and green they glimmered, striped and fretty and chequy, emblazoned
with birds and beasts, chevrons and stars, wheels and weapons. Arya spotted a yellow tent with six
acorns on its panels, three over two over one. Lord Smallwood, she knew, remembering Acorn Hall so
far away, and the lady who'd said she was pretty.
But for every shimmering silk pavilion there were two dozen of felt
or canvas, opaque and dark. There were barracks tents too, big enough to shelter two score
footsoldiers, though even those were dwarfed by the three great feast tents. The drinking had been going
on for hours, it seemed. Arya heard shouted toasts and the clash of cups, mixed in with all the usual camp
sounds, horses whinnying and dogs barking, wagons rumbling through the dark, laughter and curses, the
clank and clatter of steel and wood. The music grew still louder as they approached the castle, but under
that was a deeper, darker sound: the river, the swollen Green Fork, growling like a lion in its den.
Arya twisted and turned, trying to look everywhere at once, hoping for a glimpse of a direwolf badge,
for a tent done up in grey and white, for a face she knew from Winterfell. All she saw were strangers.


She stared at a man relieving himself in the reeds, but he wasn't Alebelly. She saw a half-dressed girl
burst from a tent laughing, but the tent was pale blue, not grey like she'd thought at first, and the man who
went running after her wore a treecat on his doublet, not a wolf. Beneath a tree, four archers were
slipping waxed strings over the notches of their longbows, but they were not her father's archers. A
maester crossed their path, but he was too young and thin to be Maester Luwin. Arya gazed up at the
Twins, their high tower windows glowing softly wherever a light was burning. Through the haze of rain,
the castles looked spooky and mysterious, like something from one of Old Nan's tales, but they weren't
Winterfell.
The press was thickest at the feast tents. The wide flaps were tied back, and men were pushing in and
out with drinking horns and tankards in their hands, some with camp followers. Arya glanced inside as
the Hound drove past the first of the three, and saw hundreds of men crowding the benches and jostling
around the casks of mead and ale and wine. There was hardly room to move inside, but none of them
seemed to mind. At least they were warm and dry. Cold wet Arya envied them. Some were even singing.
The fine misty rain was steaming all around the door from the heat escaping from inside. "Here's to Lord
Edmure and Lady Roslin," she heard a voice shout. They all drank, and someone yelled, "Here's to the
Young Wolf and Queen Jeyne."
Who is Queen Jeyne? Arya wondered briefly. The only queen she knew was Cersei.
Firepits had been dug outside the feast tents, sheltered beneath rude canopies of woven wood and hides
that kept the rain out, so long as it fell straight down. The wind was blowing off the river, though, so the
drizzle came in anyway, enough to make the fires hiss and swirl. Serving men were turning joints of meat
on spits above the flames. The smells made Arya's mouth water. "Shouldn't we stop?" she asked Sandor
Clegane. "There's northmen in the tents." She knew them by their
I
beards, by their faces, by their cloaks of bearskin and sealskin, by their half-heard toasts and the songs
they sang; Karstarks and Umbers and men of the mountain clans. "I bet there are Winterfell men too."
Her father's men, the Young Wolf's men, the direwolves of Stark.
"Your brother will be in the castle," he said. "Your mother too. You want them or not?"
"Yes," she said. "What about Sedgekins?" The sergeant had told them to ask for Sedgekins.
"Sedgekins can bugger himself with a hot poker." Clegane shook out his whip, and sent it hissing through
the soft rain to bite at a horse's flank. "It's your bloody brother I want."
Chapter 51
Catelyn
The drums were pounding, pounding, pounding, and her head with them. Pipes wailed and flutes trilled
from the musicians' gallery at the foot of the hall; fiddles screeched, horns blew, the skins skirled a lively
tune, but the drumming drove them all. The sounds echoed off the rafters, whilst the guests ate, drank,
and shouted at one another below. WaIder Frey must be deaf as a stone to call this music. Catelyn


sipped a cup of wine and watched Jinglebell prance to the sounds of "Alysanne. " At least she thought it
was meant to be "Alysanne." With these players, it might as easily have been "The Bear and the Maiden
Fair."
Outside the rain still fell, but within the Twins the air was thick and hot. A fire roared in the hearth and
rows of torches burned smokily from iron sconces on the walls. Yet most of the heat came off the bodies
of the wedding guests, jammed in so thick along the benches that every man who tried to lift his cup
poked his neighbor in the ribs.
Even on the dais they were closer than Catelyn would have liked. She had been placed between Ser
Ryman Frey and Roose Bolton, and had gotten a good noseful of both. Ser Ryman drank as if Westeros
was about to run short of wine, and sweated it all out under his arms. He had bathed in lemonwater, she
judged, but no lemon could mask so much sour sweat. Roose Bolton had a sweeter smell to him, yet no
more pleasant. He sipped hippocras in preference to wine or mead, and ate but little.
Catelyn could not fault him for his lack of appetite. The wedding feast began with a thin leek soup,
followed by a salad of green beans, onions, and beets, river pike poached in almond milk, mounds of
mashed turnips that were cold before they reached the table, jellied calves' brains, and a
leche of stringy beef. It was poor fare to set before a king, and the calves' brains turned Catelyn's
stomach. Yet Robb ate it uncomplaining, and her brother was too caught up with his bride to pay much
attention.
You would never guess Edmure complained of Roslin all the way from Riverrun to the TWins. Husband
and wife ate from a single plate, drank from a single cup, and exchanged chaste kisses between sips.
Most of the dishes Edmure waved away. She could not blame him for that. She remembered little of the
food served at her own wedding feast. Did I even taste it? Or spend the whole time gazing at Ned's face,
wondering who he was?
Poor Roslin's smile had a fixed quality to it, as if someone had sewn it onto her face. Well, she is a maid
wedded, but the bedding's yet to come. No doubt she's as terrified as I was. Robb was seated between
Alyx Frey and Fair Walda, two of the more nubile Frey maidens. "At the wedding feast I hope you will
not refuse to dance with my daughters," Walder Frey had said. "It would please an old man's heart." His
heart should be well pleased, then; Robb had done his duty like a king. He had danced with each of the
girls, with Edmure's bride and the eighth Lady Frey, with the widow Ami and Roose Bolton's wife Fat
Walda, with the pimply twins Serra and Sarra, even with Shirei, Lord Walder's youngest, who must have
been all of six. Catelyn wondered whether the Lord of the Crossing would be satisfied, or if he would
find cause for complaint in all the other daughters and granddaughters who had not had a turn with the
king. "Your sisters dance very well," she said to Ser Ryman Frey, trying to be pleasant.
"They're aunts and cousins." Ser Ryman drank a swallow of wine, the sweat trickling down his cheek
into his beard.
A sour man, and in his cups, Catelyn thought. The Late Lord Frey might be niggardly when it came to
feeding his guests, but he did not stint on the drink. The ale, wine, and mead were flowing as fast as the
river outside. The Greatjon was already roaring drunk. Lord Walder's son Merrett was matching him cup
for cup, but Ser Whalen Frey had passed out trying to keep up with the two of them. Catelyn would
sooner Lord Umber had seen fit to stay sober, but telling the Greatjon not to drink was like telling him
not to breathe for a few hours.
Smalljon Umber and Robin Flint sat near Robb, to the other side of Fair Walda and Alyx, respectively.


Neither of them was drinking; along with Patrek Mallister and Dacey Mormont, they were her son's
guards this evening. A wedding feast was not a battle, but there were always dangers when men were in
their cups, and a king should never be unguarded. Catelyn was glad of that, and even more glad of the
swordbelts hanging on pegs along the walls. No man needs a longsword to deal with jellied calves'
brains.
"Everyone thought my lord would choose Fair Walda," Lady Walda Bolton told Ser Wendel, shouting
to be heard above the music. Fat Walda was a round pink butterball of a girl with watery blue eyes, limp
yellow hair, and a huge bosom, yet her voice was a fluttering squeak. It was hard to picture her in the
Dreadfort in her pink lace and cape of vair. "My lord grandfather offered Roose his bride's weight in
silver as a dowry, though, so my lord of Bolton picked me." The girl's chins jiggled when she laughed. "I
weigh six stone more than Fair Walda, but that was the first time I was glad of it. I'm Lady Bolton now
and my cousin's still a maid, and she'll be nineteen soon, poor thing."
The Lord of the Dreadfort paid the chatter no mind, Catelyn saw. Sometimes he tasted a bite of this, a
spoon of that, tearing bread from the loaf with short strong fingers, but the meal could not distract him.
Bolton had made a toast to Lord Walder's grandsons when the wedding feast began, pointedly
mentioning that Walder and WaIder were in the care of his bastard son. From the way the old man had
squinted at him, his mouth sucking at the air, Catelyn knew he had heard the unspoken threat.
Was there ever a wedding less joyful? she wondered, until she remembered her poor Sansa and her
marriage to the Imp. Mother take mercy on her. She has a gentle soul. The heat and smoke and noise
were making her sick. The musicians in the gallery might be numerous and loud, but they were not
especially gifted. Catelyn took another swallow of wine and allowed a page to refill her cup. A few more
hours, and the worst will be over. By this hour tomorrow Robb would be off to another battle, this time
with the ironmen at Moat Cailin. Strange, how that prospect seemed almost a relief. He will win his
battle. He wins all his battles, and the ironborn are without a king. Besides, Ned taught him well. The
drums were pounding. Jinglebell hopped past her once again, but the music was so loud she could
scarcely hear his bells.
Above the din came a sudden snarling as two dogs fell upon each other over a scrap of meat. They
rolled across the floor, snapping and biting, as a howl of mirth went up. Someone doused them with a
flagon of ale and they broke apart. One limped toward the dais. Lord Walder's toothless mouth opened
in a bark of laughter as the dripping wet dog shook ale and hair all over three of his grandsons.
The sight of the dogs made Catelyn wish once more for Grey Wind, but Robb's direwolf was nowhere
to be seen. Lord Walder had refused to allow him in the hall. "Your wild beast has a taste for human
flesh, I hear, heh," the old man had said. "Rips out throats, yes. I'll have no such creature at my Roslin's
feast, amongst women and little ones, all my sweet innocents."
"Grey Wind is no danger to them, my lord," Robb protested. "Not so long as I am there."
"You were there at my gates, were you not? When the wolf attacked the grandsons I sent to greet you?
I heard all about that, don't think I didn't, heh."
"No harm was done
"No harm, the king says? No harm? Petyr fell from his horse, fell. I lost a wife the same way, falling." His
mouth worked in and out. "Or was she just some strumpet? Bastard Walder's mother, yes, now I recall.
She fell off her horse and cracked her head. What would Your Grace do if Petyr had broken his neck,
heh? Give me another apology in place of a grandson? No, no, no. Might be you're king, I won't say


you're not, the King in the North, heh, but under my roof, my rule. Have your wolf or have your
wedding, sire. You'll not have both."
Catelyn could tell that her son was furious, but he yielded with as much courtesy as he could summon. If
it pleases Lord Walder to serve me stewed crow smothered in maggots, he'd told her, I'll eat it and ask
for a second bowl. And so he had.
The Greatjon had drunk another of Lord Walder's brood under the table, Petyr Pimple this time. The lad
has a third his capacity, what did he expect? Lord Umber wiped his mouth, stood, and began to sing. "A
bear there was, a bear, a BEAR! All black and brown and covered with hair!" His voice was not at all
bad, though somewhat thick from drink. Unfortunately the fiddlers and drummers and flutists up above
were playing "Flowers of Spring," which suited the words of "The Bear and the Maiden Fair" as well as
snails might suit a bowl of porridge. Even poor Jinglebell covered his ears at the cacophony.
Roose Bolton murmured some words too soft to hear and went off in search of a privy. The cramped
hall was in a constant uproar of guests and servants coming and going. A second feast, for knights and
lords of somewhat lesser rank, was roaring along in the other castle, she knew. Lord Walder had exiled
his baseborn children and their offspring to that side of the river, so that Robb's northmen had taken to
referring to it as "the bastard feast." Some guests were no doubt stealing off to see if the bastards were
having a better time than they were. Some might even be venturing as far as the camps. The Freys had
provided wagons of wine, ale and mead, so the common soldiers could drink to the wedding of Riverrun
and the Twins.
Robb sat down in Bolton's vacant place. "A few more hours and this farce is done, Mother," he said in a
low voice, as the Greatjon sang of the maid with honey in her hair. "Black Walder's been mild as a lamb
for once. And Uncle Edmure seems well content in his bride." He leaned across her. "Ser Ryman?"
Ser Ryman Frey blinked and said, "Sire. Yes?"
"I'd hoped to ask Olyvar to squire for me when we march north,"
said Robb, "but I do not see him here. Would he be at the other feast?" "Olyvar?" Ser Ryman shook his
head. "No. Not Olyvar. Gone ... gone from the castles. Duty."
"I see." Robb's tone suggested otherwise. When Ser Ryman offered nothing more, the king got to his
feet again. "Would you care for a dance, Mother?"
"Thank you, but no." A dance was the last thing she needed, the way her head was throbbing. "No
doubt one of Lord Walder's daughters would be pleased to partner you."
"Oh, no doubt." His smile was resigned.
The musicians were playing "Iron Lances" by then, while the Greatjon sang "The Lusty Lad." Someone
should acquaint them with each other, it might improve the harmony. Catelyn turned back to Ser Ryman.
"I had heard that one of your cousins was a singer."
"Alesander. Symond's son. Alyx is his sister." He raised a cup toward where she danced with Robin
Flint.
"Will Alesander be playing for us tonight?"


Ser Ryman squinted at her. "Not him. He's away." He wiped sweat from his brow and lurched to his
feet. "Pardons, my lady. Pardons." Catelyn watched him stagger toward the door.
Edmure was kissing Roslin and squeezing her hand. Elsewhere in the hall, Ser Marq Piper and Ser
Danwell Frey played a drinking game, Lame Lothar said something amusing to Ser Hosteen, one of the
younger Freys juggled three daggers for a group of giggly girls, and Jinglebell sat on the floor sucking
wine off his fingers. The servers were bringing out huge silver platters piled high with cuts of juicy pink
lamb, the most appetizing dish they'd seen all evening. And Robb was leading Dacey Mormont in a
dance.
When she wore a dress in place of a hauberk, Lady Maege's eldest daughter was quite pretty; tall and
willowy, with a shy smile that made her long face light up. it was pleasant to see that she could be as
graceful on the dance floor as in the training yard. Catelyn wondered if Lady Maege had reached the
Neck as yet. She had taken her other daughters with her, but as one of Robb's battle companions Dacey
had chosen to remain by his side. He has Ned's gift for inspiring loyalty. Olyvar Frey had been devoted
to her son as well. Hadn't Robb said that Olyvar wanted to remain with him even after he'd married
Jeyne?
Seated betwixt his black oak towers, the Lord of the Crossing clapped his spotted hands together. The
noise they made was so faint that even those on the dais scarce heard it, but Ser Aenys and Ser Hosteen
saw and began to pound their cups on the table. Lame Lothar joined them, then Marq Piper and Ser
Danwell and Ser Raymund. Half the guests were soon pounding. Finally even the mob of musicians in the
gallery took note. The piping, drumming, and fiddling trailed off into quiet.
"Your Grace," Lord Walder called out to Robb, "the septon has prayed his prayers, some words have
been said, and Lord Edmure's wrapped my sweetling in a fish cloak, but they are not yet man and wife.
A sword needs a sheath, heh, and a wedding needs a bedding. What does my sire say? Is it meet that we
should bed them?"
A score or more of Walder Frey's sons and grandsons began to bang their cups again, shouting, "To
bed! To bed! To bed with them!" Roslin had gone white. Catelyn wondered whether it was the prospect
of losing her maidenhead that frightened the girl, or the bedding itself. With so many siblings, she was not
like to be a stranger to the custom, but it was different when you were the one being bedded. On
Catelyn's own wedding night, Jory Cassell had torn her gown in his haste to get her out of it, and drunken
Desmond Grell kept apologizing for every bawdy joke, only to make another. When Lord Dustin had
beheld her naked, he'd told Ned that her breasts were enough to make him wish he'd never been
weaned. Poor man, she thought. He had ridden south with Ned, never to return. Catelyn wondered how
many of the men here tonight would be dead before the year was done. Too many, I fear.
Robb raised a hand. "if you think the time is meet, Lord Walder, by all means let us bed them."
A roar of approval greeted his pronouncement. Up in the gallery the musicians took up their pipes and
horns and fiddles again, and began to play "The Queen Took Off Her Sandal, the King Took Off His
Crown." Jinglebell. hopped from foot to foot, his own crown ringing. "I hear Tully men have trout
between their legs instead of cocks," Alyx Frey called out boldly. "Does it take a worm to make them
rise?" To which Ser Marq Piper threw back, "I hear that Frey women have two gates in place of one!"
and Alyx said, "Aye, but both are closed and barred to little things like you!" A gust of laughter followed,
until Patrek Mallister climbed up onto a table to propose a toast to Edmure's one-eyed fish. "And a
mighty pike it is!" he proclaimed. "Nay, I'll wager it's a minnow," Fat Walda Bolton shouted out from
Catelyn's side. Then the general cry of "Bed them! Bed them!" went up again.


The guests swarmed the dais, the drunkest in the forefront as ever. The men and boys surrounded Roslin
and lifted her into the air whilst the maids and mothers in the hall pulled Edmure to his feet and began
tugging at his clothing. He was laughing and shouting bawdy jokes back at them, though the music was
too loud for Catelyn to hear. She heard the Greatjon, though. "Give this little bride to me," he bellowed
as he shoved through the other men and threw Roslin over one shoulder. "Look at this little thing! No
meat on her at all!"
Catelyn felt sorry for the girl. Most brides tried to return the banter, or at least pretended to enjoy it, but
Roslin was stiff with terror, clutching
the Greatjon as if she feared he might drop her. She's crying too, Catelyn realized as she watched Ser
Marq Piper pull off one of the bride's shoes. I hope Edmure is gentle with the poor child. jolly, bawdy
music still poured down from the gallery; the queen was taking off her kirtle now, and the king his tunic.
She knew she should join the throng of women round her brother, but she would only ruin their fun. The
last thing she felt just now was bawdy. Edmure would forgive her absence, she did not doubt; much
jollier to be stripped and bedded by a score of lusty, laughing Freys than by a sour, stricken sister.
As man and maid were carried from the hall, a trail of clothing behind them, Catelyn saw that Robb had
also remained. Walder Frey was prickly enough to see some insult to his daughter in that. He should join
in Roslin's bedding, but is it my place to tell him so? She tensed, until she saw that others had stayed as
well. Petyr Pimple and Ser Whalen Frey slept on, their heads on the table. Merrett Frey poured himself
another cup of wine, while Jinglebell wandered about stealing bites off the plates of those who'd left. Ser
Wendel Manderly was lustily attacking a leg of lamb. And of course Lord Walder was far too feeble to
leave his seat without help. He will expect Robb to go, though. She could almost hear the old man asking
why His Grace did not want to see his daughter naked. The drums were pounding again, pounding and
pounding and pounding.
Dacey Mormont, who seemed to be the only woman left in the hall besides Catelyn, stepped up behind
Edwyn Frey, and touched him lightly on the arm as she said something in his ear. Edwyn wrenched
himself away from her with unseemly violence. "No," he said, too loudly. "I'm done with dancing for the
nonce." Dacey paled and turned away. Catelyn got slowly to her feet. What just happened there? Doubt
gripped her heart, where an instant before had been only weariness. It is nothing, she tried to tell herself,
you are seeing grumkins in the woodpile, you are become an old silly woman sick with grief and fear. But
something must have shown on her face. Even Ser Wendel Manderly took note. "Is something amiss?" he
asked, the leg of lamb in his hands.
She did not answer him. Instead she went after Edwyn Frey. The players in the gallery had finally gotten
both king and queen down to their name-day suits. With scarcely a moment's respite, they began to play
a very different sort of song. No one sang the words, but Catelyn knew "The Rains of Castamere" when
she heard it. Edwyn was hurrying toward a door. She hurried faster, driven by the music. Six quick
strides and she caught him. And who are you, the proud lord said, that I must bow so low? She grabbed
Edwyn by the arm to turn him and went cold all over when she felt the iron rings beneath his silken
sleeve.
Catelyn slapped him so hard she broke his lip. Olyvar, she thought, and Perwyn, Alesander, all absent.
And Roslin wept ...
Edwyn Frey shoved her aside. The music drowned all other sound, echoing off the walls as if the stones
themselves were playing. Robb gave Edwyn an angry look and moved to block his way ... and staggered
suddenly as a quarrel sprouted from his side, just beneath the shoulder. if he screamed then, the sound


was swallowed by the pipes and horns and fiddles. Catelyn saw a second bolt pierce his leg, saw him
fall. Up in the gallery, half the musicians had crossbows in their hands instead of drums or lutes. She ran
toward her son, until something punched in the small of the back and the hard stone floor came up to slap
her. "Robb!" she screamed. She saw Smalljon Umber wrestle a table off its trestles. Crossbow bolts
thudded into the wood, one two three, as he flung it down on top of his king. Robin Flint was ringed by
Freys, their daggers rising and falling. Ser Wendel Manderly rose ponderously to his feet, holding his leg
of lamb. A quarrel went in his open mouth and came out the back of his neck. Ser Wendel crashed
forward, knocking the table off its trestles and sending cups, flagons, trenchers, platters, turnips, beets,
and wine bouncing, spilling, and sliding across the floor.
Catelyn's back was on fire. I have to reach him. The Smalljon bludgeoned Ser Raymund Frey across the
face with a leg of mutton. But when he reached for his swordbelt a crossbow bolt drove him to his knees.
In a coat of gold or a coat of red, a lion still has claws. She saw Lucas Blackwood cut down by Ser
Hosteen Frey. One of the Vances was hamstrung by Black Walder as he was wrestling with Ser Harys
Haigh. And mine are long and sharp, my lord, as long and sharp as yours. The crossbows took Donnel
Locke, Owen Norrey, and half a dozen more. Young Ser Benfrey had seized Dacey Mormont by the
arm, but Catelyn saw her grab up a flagon of wine with her other hand, smash it full in his face, and run
for the door. It flew open before she reached it. Ser Ryman Frey pushed into the hall, clad in steel from
helm to heel. A dozen Frey men-at-arms packed the door behind him. They were armed with heavy
longaxes.
"Mercy!" Catelyn cried, but horns and drums and the clash of steel smothered her plea. Ser Ryman
buried the head of his axe in Dacey's stomach. By then men were pouring in the other doors as well,
mailed men in shaggy fur cloaks with steel in their hands. Northmen! She took them for rescue for half a
heartbeat, till one of them struck the Smalljon's head off with two huge blows of his axe. Hope blew out
like a candle in a storm.
in the midst of slaughter, the Lord of the Crossing sat on his carved oaken throne, watching greedily.
There was a dagger on the floor a few feet away. Perhaps it had skittered there when the Smalljon
knocked the table off its trestles, or perhaps it had fallen from the hand of some dying man. Catelyn
crawled toward it. Her limbs were leaden, and the taste of blood was in her mouth. I will kill Walder
Frey, she told herself. jinglebell was closer to the knife, hiding under a table, but he only cringed away as
she snatched up the blade. I Mll kill the old man, I can do that much at least.
Then the tabletop that the Smalljon had flung over Robb shifted , and her son struggled to his knees. He
had an arrow in his side, a second in his leg, a third through his chest. Lord Walder raised a hand, and
the music stopped, all but one drum. Catelyn heard the crash of distant battle, and closer the wild howling
of a wolf. Grey Wind, she remembered too late. "Heh," Lord Walder cackled at Robb, "the King in the
North arises. Seems we killed some of your men, Your Grace. Oh, but I'll make you an apology, that will
mend them all again, heh.-
Catelyn grabbed a handful of jinglebell Frey's long grey hair and dragged him out of his hiding place.
"Lord Walder!" she shouted. "LORD WALDER!" The drum beat slow and sonorous, doom boom
doom. "Enough," said Catelyn. "Enough, I say. You have repaid betrayal with betrayal, let it end." When
she pressed her dagger to jinglebell's throat, the memory of Bran's sickroom came back to her, with the
feel of steel at her own throat. The drum went boom doom boom doom boom doom. "Please," she said.
"He is my son. My first son, and my last. Let him go. Let him go and I swear we will forget this ... forget
all you've done here. I swear it by the old gods and new, we ... we will take no vengeance. . . "
Lord Walder peered at her in mistrust. "Only a fool would believe such blather. D'you take me for a


fool, my lady?"
"I take you for a father. Keep me for a hostage, Edmure as well if you haven't killed him. But let Robb
go."
"No. " Robb's voice was whisper faint. "Mother, no . . .
"Yes. Robb, get up. Get up and walk out, please, please. Save yourself ... if not for me, for Jeyne."
"Jeyne?" Robb grabbed the edge of the table and forced himself to stand. "Mother," he said, "Grey
Wind..."
"Go to him. Now. Robb, walk out of here."
Lord Walder snorted. "And why would I let him do that?"
She pressed the blade deeper into jinglebell's throat. The lackwit rolled his eyes at her in mute appeal. A
foul stench assailed her nose, but she paid it no more mind than she did the sullen ceaseless pounding of
that drum, boom doom boom doom boom doom. Ser Ryman and Black Walder were circling round her
back, but Catelyn did not care. They could do as they wished with her; imprison her, rape her, kill her, it
made no matter. She had lived too long, and Ned was waiting. It was Robb she feared for.
"On my honor as a Tully," she told Lord Walder, "on my honor as a Stark, I will trade your boy's life for
Robb's. A son for a son." Her hand shook so badly she was ringing Jinglebell's head.
Boom, the drum sounded, boom doom boom doom. The old man's lips went in and out. The knife
trembled in Catelyn's hand, slippery with sweat. "A son for a son, heh," he repeated. "But that's a
grandson ... and he never was much use."
A man in dark armor and a pale pink cloak spotted with blood stepped up to Robb. "Jaime Lannister
sends his regards." He thrust his longsword through her son's heart, and twisted.
Robb had broken his word, but Catelyn kept hers. She tugged hard on Aegon's hair and sawed at his
neck until the blade grated on bone. Blood ran hot over her fingers. His little bells were ringing, ringing,
ringing, and the drum went boom doom boom.
Finally someone took the knife away from her. The tears burned like vinegar as they ran down her
cheeks. Ten flerce ravens were raking her face with sharp talons and tearing off strips of flesh, leaving
deep furrows that ran red with blood. She could taste it on her lips.
It hurts so much, she thought. Our children, Ned, all our sweet babes. Rickon, Bran, Arya, Sansa, Robb
... Robb ... please, Ned, please, make it stop, make it stop hurting ... The white tears and the red ones
ran together until her face was torn and tattered, the face that Ned had loved. Catelyn Stark raised her
hands and watched the blood run down her long fingers, over her wrists, beneath the sleeves of her
gown. Slow red worms crawled along her arms and under her clothes. It tickles. That made her laugh
until she screamed. "Mad," someone said, "she's lost her wits," and someone else said, "Make an end,"
and a hand grabbed her scalp just as she'd done with Jinglebell, and she thought, No, don't, don't cut my
hair, Ned loves my hair. Then the steel was at her throat, and its bite was red and cold.


Chapter 52
ARYA
The feast tents were behind them now. They squished over wet clay and torn grass, out of the light and
back into the gloom. Ahead loomed the castle gatehouse. She could see torches moving on the walls,
their flames dancing and blowing in the wind. The light shone dully against the wet mail and helms. More
torches were moving on the dark stone bridge that joined the Twins, a column of them streaming from the
west bank to the east.
"The castle's not closed," Arya said suddenly. The sergeant had said it would be, but he was wrong. The
portcullis was being drawn upward even as she watched, and the drawbridge had already been lowered
to span the swollen moat. She had been afraid that Lord Frey's guardsmen would refuse to let them in.
For half a heartbeat she chewed her lip, too anxious to smile.
The Hound reined up so suddenly that she almost fell off the wayn. "Seven bloody buggering hells," Arya
heard him curse, as their left wheel began to sink in soft mud. The wayn tilted slowly. "Get dovm,"
Clegane roared at her, slamming the heel of his hand into her shoulder to knock her sideways. She
landed light, the way Syrio had taught her, and bounced up at once with a face full of mud. "Why did you
do that?" she screamed. The Hound had leapt down as well. He tore the seat off the front of the wayn
and reached in for the swordbelt he'd hidden beneath it.
It was only then that she heard the riders pouring out the castle gate in a river of steel and fire, the
thunder of their destriers crossing the drawbridge almost lost beneath the drumming from the castles.
Men and mounts wore plate armor, and one in every ten carried a torch. The rest
had axes, longaxes with spiked heads and heavy bone-crushing armorsmashing blades.
Somewhere far off she heard a wolf howling. It wasn't very loud compared to the camp noise and the
music and the low ominous growl of the river running wild, but she heard it all the same. Only maybe it
wasn't her ears that heard it. The sound shivered through Arya like a knife, sharp with rage and grief.
More and more riders were emerging from the castle, a column four wide with no end to it, knights and
squires and freeriders, torches and longaxes. And there was noise coming from behind as well.
When Arya looked around, she saw that there were only two of the huge feast tents where once there
had been three. The one in the middle had collapsed. For a moment she did not understand what she was
seeing. Then the flames went licking up from the fallen tent, and now the other two were collapsing,
heavy oiled cloth settling down on the men beneath. A flight of fire arrows streaked through the air. The
second tent took fire, and then the third. The screams grew so loud she could hear words through the
music. Dark shapes moved in front of the flames, the steel of their armor shining orange from afar.
A battle, Arya knew. It's a battle. And the riders ...
She had no more time to watch the tents then. With the river overflowing its banks, the dark swirling
waters at the end of the drawbridge reached as high as a horse's belly, but the riders splashed through
them all the same, spurred on by the music. For once the same song was coming from both castles. I
know this song, Arya realized suddenly. Tom o' Sevens had sung it for them, that rainy night the outlaws
had sheltered in the brewhouse with the brothers. And who are you, the proud lord said, that I must bow
so low?


The Frey riders were struggling through the mud and reeds, but some of them had seen the wayn. She
watched as three riders left the main column, pounding through the shallows. Only a cat of a different
coat, that's all the truth I know
Clegane cut Stranger loose with a single slash of his sword and leapt onto his back. The courser knew
what was wanted of him. He pricked up his ears and wheeled toward the charging destriers. In a coat of
gold or a coat of red, a lion still has claws. And mine are long and sharp, my lord, as long and sharp as
yours. Arya had prayed a hundred hundred times for the Hound to die, but now ... there was a rock in
her hand, slimy with mud, and she didn't even remember picking it up. Who do I throw it at?
She jumped at the clash of metal as Clegane turned aside the first longaxe. While he was engaged with
the first man, the second circled behind him and aimed a blow for the small of his back. Stranger was
wheeling, so the Hound took only a glancing blow, enough to rip a great gash in his baggy peasant's
blouse and expose the mail below. He is one against three. Arya still clutched her rock. They're sure to
kill him. She thought of Mycah, the butcher's boy who had been her friend so briefly.
Then she saw the third rider coming her way. Arya moved behind the wayn. Fear cuts deeper than
swords. She could hear drums and warhorns and pipes, stallions trumpeting, the shriek of steel on steel,
but all the sounds seemed so far away. There was only the oncoming horseman and the longaxe in his
hand. He wore a surcoat over his armor and she saw the two towers that marked him for a Frey. She did
not understand. Her uncle was marrying Lord Frey's daughter, the Freys were her brother's friends.
"Don't!" she screamed as he rode around the wayn, but he paid no mind.
When he charged Arya threw the rock, the way she'd once thrown a crabapple at Gendry. She'd gotten
Gendry right between the eyes, but this time her aim was off, and the stone caromed sideways off his
temple. It was enough to break his charge, but no more. She retreated, darting across the muddy ground
on the balls of her feet, putting the wayn between them once more. The knight followed at a trot, only
darkness behind his eyeslit. She hadn't even dented his helm. They went round once, twice, a third time.
The knight cursed her. "You can't run for - "
The axehead caught him square in the back of the head, crashing through his helm and the skull beneath
and sending him flying face first from his saddle. Behind him was the Hound, still mounted on Stranger.
How did you get an axe? she almost asked, before she saw. One of the other Freys was trapped
beneath his dying horse, drowning in a foot of water. The third man was sprawled on his back, unmoving.
He hadn't worn a gorget, and a foot of broken sword jutted from beneath his chin.
"Get my helm," Clegane growled at her.
it was stuffed at the bottom of a sack of dried apples, in the back of the wayn behind the pickled pigs'
feet. Arya upended the sack and tossed it to him. He snatched it one-handed from the air and lowered it
over his head, and where the man had sat only a steel dog remained, snarling at the fires.
"My brother. . .
"Dead," he shouted back at her. "Do you think they'd slaughter his men and leave him alive?" He turned
his head back toward the camp. "Look. Look, damn you."
The camp had become a battlefield. No, a butcher's den. The flames from the feasting tents reached
halfway up the sky. Some of the barracks tents were burning too, and half a hundred silk pavilions.


Everywhere swords were singing. And now the rains weep o'er his hall, with not a soul to hear. She saw
two knights ride down a running man. A wooden
barrel came crashing onto one of the burning tents and burst apart, and the flames leapt twice as high. A
catapult, she knew. The castle was flinging oil or pitch or something.
"Come with me." Sandor Clegane reached down a hand. "We have to get away from here, and now."
Stranger tossed his head impatiently, his nostrils flaring at the scent of blood. The song was done. There
was only one solitary drum, its slow monotonous beats echoing across the river like the pounding of
some monstrous heart. The black sky wept, the river grumbled, men cursed and died. Arya had mud in
her teeth and her face was wet. Rain. It's only rain. That's all it is. "We're here," she shouted. Her voice
sounded thin and scared, a little girl's voice. "Robb's just in the castle, and my mother. The gate's even
open." There were no more Freys riding out. I came so far. "We have to go get my mother."
"Stupid little bitch." Fires glinted off the snout of his helm, and made the steel teeth shine. "You go in
there, you won't come out. Maybe Frey will let you kiss your mother's corpse."
"Maybe we can save her..."
"Maybe you can. I'm not done living yet." He rode toward her, crowding her back toward the wayn.
"Stay or go, she-wolf. Live or die. Your - "
Arya spun away from him and darted for the gate. The portcullis was coming down, but slowly. I have
to run faster. The mud slowed her, though, and then the water. Run fast as a wolf. The drawbridge had
begun to lift, the water running off it in a sheet, the mud falling in heavy clots. Faster. She heard loud
splashing and looked back to see Stranger pounding after her, sending up gouts of water with every
stride. She saw the longaxe too, still wet with blood and brains. And Arya ran. Not for her brother now,
not even for her mother, but for herself. She ran faster than she had ever run before, her head down and
her feet churning up the river, she ran from him as Mycah must have run.
His axe took her in the back of the head.
Chapter 53
TYRION
They supped alone, as they did so often. "The pease are overcooked," his wife ventured once. "No
matter," he said. "So is the mutton."
It was a jest, but Sansa took it for criticism. "I am sorry, my lord."
"Why? Some cook should be sorry. Not you. The pease are not your province, Sansa."
"I ... I am sorry that my lord husband is displeased."
"Any displeasure I'm feeling has naught to do with pease. I have Joffrey and my sister to displease me,
and my lord father, and three hundred bloody Dornishmen." He had settled Prince Oberyn and his lords


in a cornerfort facing the city, as far from the Tyrells as he could put them without evicting them from the
Red Keep entirely. It was not nearly far enough. Already there had been a brawl in a Flea Bottom
pot-shop that left one Tyrell man-at-arms dead and two of Lord Gargalen's scalded, and an ugly
confrontation in the yard when Mace Tyrell's wizened little mother called Ellaria Sand "the serpent's
whore." Every time he chanced to see Oberyn Martell the prince asked when the justice would be
served. Overcooked pease were the least of Tyrion's troubles, but he saw no point in burdening his
young wife with any of that. Sansa had enough griefs of her own.
"The pease suffice," he told her curtly. "They are green and round, what more can one expect of pease?
Here, I'll have another serving, if it please my lady." He beckoned, and Podrick Payne spooned so many
pease onto his plate that Tyrion lost sight of his mutton. That was stupid, he told himself. Now I have to
eat them all, or she'll be sorry all over again.
The supper ended in a strained silence, as so many of their suppers did. Afterward, as Pod was
removing the cups and platters, Sansa asked Tyrion for leave to visit the godswood.
"As you wish." He had become accustomed to his wife's nightly devotions. She prayed at the royal sept
as well, and often lit candles to Mother, Maid, and Crone. Tyrion found all this piety excessive, if truth be
told, but in her place he might want the help of the gods as well. "I confess, I know little of the old gods,"
he said, trying to be pleasant. "Perhaps someday you might enlighten me. I could even accompany you."
"No," Sansa said at once. "You ... you are kind to offer, but ... there are no devotions, my lord. No
priests or songs or candles. Only trees, and silent prayer. You would be bored."
"No doubt you're right." She knows me better than I thought. "Though the sound of rustling leaves might
be a pleasant change from some septon droning on about the seven aspects of grace." Tyrion waved her
off. "I won't intrude. Dress warmly, my lady, the wind is brisk out there." He was tempted to ask what
she prayed for, but Sansa was so dutiful she might actually tell him, and he didn't think he wanted to
know.
He went back to work after she left, trying to track some golden dragons through the labyrinth of
Littlefinger's ledgers. Petyr Baelish had not believed in letting gold sit about and grow dusty, that was for
certain, but the more Tyrion tried to make sense of his accounts the more his head hurt. it was all very
well to talk of breeding dragons instead of locking them up in the treasury, but some of these ventures
smelled worse than week-old fish. I wouldn't have been so quick to let Joffrey fling the Antler Men over
the walls if I'd known how many of the bloody bastards had taken loans from the crown. He would have
to send Bronn to find their heirs, but he feared that would prove as fruitful as trying to squeeze silver from
a silverfish.
When the summons from his lord father arrived, it was the first time Tyrion could ever recall being
pleased to see Ser Boros Blount. He closed the ledgers gratefully, blew out the oil lamp, tied a cloak
around his shoulders, and waddled across the castle to the Tower of the Hand. The wind was brisk, just
as he'd warned Sansa, and there was a smell of rain in the air. Perhaps when Lord Tywin was done with
him he should go to the godswood and fetch her home before she got soaked.
But all that went straight out of his head when he entered the Hand's solar to find Cersei, Ser Kevan,
and Grand Maester Pycelle gathered about Lord Tywin and the king. Joffrey was almost bouncing, and
Cersei was savoring a smug little smile, though Lord Tywin looked as grim as ever. I wonder if he could
smile even if he wanted to. "What's happened?" Tyrion asked.
His father offered him a roll of parchment. Someone had flattened it, but it still wanted to curl. "Roslin


caught a fine fat trout," the message read. "Her brothers gave her a pair of wolf pelts for her wedding."
Tyrion turned it over to inspect the broken seal. The wax was silvery-grey, and pressed into it were the
twin towers of House Frey. "Does the Lord of the Crossing imagine he's being poetic? Or is this meant to
confound us? " Tyrion snorted. "The trout would be Edmure Tully, the pelts . . . "
"He's dead!" Joffrey sounded so proud and happy you might have thought he'd skinned Robb Stark
himself.
First Greyjoy and now Stark. Tyrion thought of his child wife, praying in the godswood even now.
Praying to her father's gods to bring her brother victory and keep her mother safe, no doubt. The old
gods paid no more heed to prayer than the new ones, it would seem. Perhaps he should take comfort in
that. "Kings are falling like leaves this autumn," he said. "It would seem our little war is winning itself."
"Wars do not win themselves, Tyrion," Cersei said with poisonous sweetness. "Our lord father won this
war."
"Nothing is won so long as we have enemies in the field," Lord Tywin warned them.
"The river lords are no fools," the queen argued. "Without the northmen they cannot hope to stand
against the combined power of Highgarden, Casterly Rock, and Dome. Surely they will choose
submission rather than destruction."
"Most," agreed Lord Tywin. "Riverrun remains, but so long as Walder Frey holds Edmure Tully hostage,
the Blackfish dare not mount a threat. Jason Mallister and Tytos Blackwood will fight on for honor's
sake, but the Freys can keep the Mallisters penned up at Seagard, and with the right inducement Jonos
Bracken can be persuaded to change his allegiance and attack the Blackwoods. In the end they will bend
the knee, yes. I mean to offer generous terms. Any castle that yields to us will be spared, save one."
"Harrenhal?" said Tyrion, who knew his sire.
"The realm is best rid of these Brave Companions. I have commanded Ser Gregor to put the castle to
the sword."
Gregor Clegane. It appeared as if his lord father meant to mine the Mountain for every last nugget of ore
before turning him over to Domish justice. The Brave Companions would end as heads on spikes, and
Littlefinger would stroll into Harrenhal without so much as a spot of blood on those fine clothes of his. He
wondered if Petyr Baelish had reached the Vale yet. lf the gods are good, he ran into a storm at sea and
sank. But when had the gods ever been especially good?
"They should all be put to the sword," Joffrey declared suddenly. "The Mallisters and Blackwoods and
Brackens ... all of them. They're traitors.
I want them killed, Grandfather. I won't have any generous terms." The king turned to Grand Maester
Pycelle. "And I want Robb Stark's head too. Write to Lord Frey and tell him. The king commands. I'm
going to have it served to Sansa at my wedding feast."
"Sire," Ser Kevan said, in a shocked voice, "the lady is now your aunt by marriage."
"A jest." Cersei smiled. "Joff did not mean it."
"Yes I did," Joffrey insisted. "He was a traitor, and I want his stupid head. I'm going to make Sansa kiss


it."
"No." Tyrion's voice was hoarse. "Sansa is no longer yours to torment. Understand that, monster."
Joffrey sneered. "You're the monster, Uncle."
"Am I?" Tyrion cocked his head. "Perhaps you should speak more softly to me, then. Monsters are
dangerous beasts, and just now kings seem to be dying like flies."
"I could have your tongue out for saying that," the boy king said, reddening. "I'm the king."
Cersei put a protective hand on her son's shoulder. "Let the dwarf make all the threats he likes, Joff. I
want my lord father and my uncle to see what he is."
Lord Tywin ignored that; it was Joffrey he addressed. "Aerys also felt the need to remind men that he
was king. And he was passing fond of ripping tongues out as well. You could ask Ser Ilyn Payne about
that, though you'll get no reply."
"Ser Ilyn never dared provoke Aerys the way your Imp provokes Joff," said Cersei. "You heard him.
'Monster' he said. To the King's Grace.
And he threatened him ...
"Be quiet, Cersei. Joffrey, when your enemies defy you, you must serve them steel and fire. When they
go to their knees, however, you must help them back to their feet. Elsewise no man will ever bend the
knee to you. And any man who must say 'I am the king' is no true king at all. Aerys never understood
that, but you will. When I've won your war for you, we will restore the king's peace and the king's
justice. The only head that need concern you is Margaery Tyrell's maidenhead."
Joffrey had that sullen, sulky look he got. Cersei had him firmly by the shoulder, but perhaps she should
have had him by the throat. The boy surprised them all. instead of scuttling safely back under his rock,
Joff drew himself up defiantly and said, "You talk about Aerys, Grandfather, but you were scared of
him."
Oh, my, hasn't this gotten interesting? Tyrion thought.
Lord Tywin studied his grandchild in silence, gold flecks shining in his pale green eyes. "Joffrey,
apologize to your grandfather," said Cersei.
He wrenched free of her. "Why should I? Everyone knows it's true. My
father won all the battles. He killed Prince Rhaegar and took the crown, while your father was hiding
under Casterly Rock. " The boy gave his grandfather a defiant look. "A strong king acts boldly, he
doesn't just talk."
"Thank you for that wisdom, Your Grace," Lord Tywin said, with a courtesy so cold it was like to freeze
their ears off. "Ser Kevan, I can see the king is tired. Please see him safely back to his bedchamber.
Pycelle, perhaps some gentle potion to help His Grace sleep restfully?"
"Dreamwine, my lord?"


"I don't want any dreamwine," Joffrey insisted.
Lord Tywin would have paid more heed to a mouse squeaking in the corner. "Dreamwine will serve.
Cersei, Tyrion, remain."
Ser Kevan took Joffrey firmly by the arm and marched him out the door, where two of the Kingsguard
were waiting. Grand Maester Pycelle scurried after them as fast as his shaky old legs could take him.
Tyrion remained where he was.
"Father, I am sorry," Cersei said, when the door was shut. "Joff has always been willful, I did warn you .
. . "
"There is a long league's worth of difference between willful and stupid. 'A strong king acts boldly?' Who
told him that?"
"Not me, I promise you," said Cersei. "Most like it was something he heard Robert say. . ."
"The part about you hiding under Casterly Rock does sound like Robert." Tyrion didn't want Lord
Tywin forgetting that bit.
"Yes, I recall now," Cersei said, "Robert often told Joff that a king must be bold."
"And what were you telling him, pray? I did not fight a war to seat Robert the Second on the Iron
Throne. You gave me to understand the boy cared nothing for his father."
"Why would he? Robert ignored him. He would have beat him if I'd allowed it. That brute you made me
marry once hit the boy so hard he knocked out two of his baby teeth, over some mischief with a cat. I
told him I'd kill him in his sleep if he ever did it again, and he never did, but sometimes he would say
things . . . "
"It appears things needed to be said." Lord Tywin waved two fingers at her, a brusque dismissal. "Go."
She went, seething.
"Not Robert the Second," Tyrion said. "Aerys the Third."
"The boy is thirteen. There is time yet." Lord Tywin paced to the window. That was unlike him; he was
more upset than he wished to show. "He requires a sharp lesson."
Tyrion had gotten his own sharp lesson at thirteen. He felt almost sorry for his nephew. On the other
hand, no one deserved it more. "Enough of Joffrey," he said. "Wars are won with quills and ravens,
wasn't that what
you said? I must congratulate you. How long have you and Walder Frey been plotting this?"
"I mislike that word," Lord Tywin said stiffly.
"And I mislike being left in the dark."
"There was no reason to tell you. You had no part in this."


"Was Cersei told?" Tyrion demanded to know.
"No one was told, save those who had a part to play. And they were only told as much as they needed
to know. You ought to know that there is no other way to keep a secret - here, especially. My object
was to rid us of a dangerous enemy as cheaply as I could, not to indulge your curiosity or make your
sister feel important." He closed the shutters, frowning. "You have a certain cunning, Tyrion, but the plain
truth is you talk too much. That loose tongue of yours will be your undoing."
"You should have let Joff tear it out," suggested Tyrion.
"You would do well not to tempt me," Lord Tywin said. "I'll hear no more of this. I have been
considering how best to appease Oberyn Martell and his entourage."
"Oh? Is this something I'm allowed to know, or should I leave so you can discuss it with yourself?"
His father ignored the sally. "Prince Oberyn's presence here is unfortunate. His brother is a cautious man,
a reasoned man, subtle, deliberate, even indolent to a degree. He is a man who weighs the consequences
of every word and every action. But Oberyn has always been half-mad."
"Is it true he tried to raise Dome for Viserys?"
"No one speaks of it, but yes. Ravens flew and riders rode, with what secret messages I never knew.
Jon Arryn sailed to Sunspear to return Prince Lewyn's bones, sat down with Prince Doran, and ended all
the talk of war. But Robert never went to Dome thereafter, and Prince Oberyn seldom left it."
"Well, he's here now, with half the nobility of Dome in his tail, and he grows more impatient every day,"
said Tyrion. "Perhaps I should show him the brothels of King's Landing, that might distract him. A tool
for every task, isn't that how it works? My tool is yours, Father. Never let it be said that House Lannister
blew its trumpets and I did not respond."
Lord Tywin's mouth tightened. "Very droll. Shall I have them sew you a suit of motley, and a little hat
with bells on it?"
"If I wear it, do I have leave to say anything I want about His Grace King Joffrey?"
Lord Tywin seated himself again and said, "I was made to suffer my father's follies. I will not suffer
yours. Enough."
"Very well, as you ask so pleasantly. The Red Viper is not going to be pleasant, I fear ... nor will he
content himself with Ser Gregor's head alone."
"All the more reason not to give it to him."
"Not to ... ?" Tyrion was shocked. "I thought we were agreed that the woods were full of beasts."
"Lesser beasts." Lord Tywin's fingers laced together under his chin. "Ser Gregor has served us well. No
other knight in the realm inspires such terror in our enemies."
"Oberyn knows that Gregor was the one who..."
"He knows nothing. He has heard tales. Stable gossip and kitchen calumnies. He has no crumb of proof.


Ser Gregor is certainly not about to confess to him. I mean to keep him well away for so long as the
Domishmen are in King's Landing."
"And when Oberyn demands the justice he's come for?"
"I will tell him that Ser Amory Lorch killed Elia and her children," Lord Tywin said calmly. "So will you,
if he asks."
"Ser Amory Lorch is dead," Tyrion said flatly.
"Precisely. Vargo Hoat had Ser Amory torn apart by a bear after the fall of Harrenhal. That ought to be
sufficiently grisly to appease even Oberyn Martell."
"You may call that justice. . .
"It is justice. It was Ser Amory who brought me the girl's body, if you must know. He found her hiding
under her father's bed, as if she believed Rhaegar could still protect her. Princess Elia and the babe were
in the nursery a floor below."
"Well, it's a tale, and Ser Amory's not like to deny it. What will you tell Oberyn when he asks who gave
Lorch his orders?"
"Ser Amory acted on his own in the hope of winning favor from the new king. Robert's hatred for
Rhaegar was scarcely a secret."
It might serve, Tyrion had to concede, but the snake will not be happy. "Far be it from me to question
your cunning, Father, but in your place I do believe I'd have let Robert Baratheon bloody his own
hands."
Lord Tywin stared at him as if he had lost his wits. "You deserve that motley, then. We had come late to
Robert's cause. It was necessary to demonstrate our loyalty. When I laid those bodies before the throne,
no man could doubt that we had forsaken House Targaryen forever. And Robert's relief was palpable.
As stupid as he was, even he knew that Rhaegar's children had to die if his throne was ever to be secure.
Yet he saw himself as a hero, and heroes do not kill children." His father shrugged. "I grant you, it was
done too brutally. Elia need not have been harmed at all, that was sheer folly. By herself she was
nothing."
"Then why did the Mountain kill her?"
"Because I did not tell him to spare her. I doubt I mentioned her at all. I had more pressing concerns.
Ned Stark's van was rushing south from the Trident, and I feared it might come to swords between us.
And
it was in Aerys to murder Jaime, with no more cause than spite. That was the thing I feared most. That,
and what Jaime himself might do." He closed a fist. "Nor did I yet grasp what I had in Gregor Clegane,
only that he was huge and terrible in battle. The rape ... even you will not accuse me of giving that
command, I would hope. Ser Amory was almost as bestial with Rhaenys. I asked him afterward why it
had required half a hundred thrusts to kill a girl of ... two? Three? He said she'd kicked him and would
not stop screaming. If Lorch had half the wits the gods gave a turnip, he would have calmed her with a
few sweet words and used a soft silk pillow." His mouth twisted in distaste. "The blood was in him."


But not in you, Father. There is no blood in Tywin Lannister. "Was it a soft silk pillow that slew Robb
Stark?"
"It was to be an arrow, at Edmure Tully's wedding feast. The boy was too wary in the field. He kept his
men in good order, and surrounded himself with outriders and bodyguards."
"So Lord Walder slew him under his own roof, at his own table?" Tyrion made a fist. "What of Lady
Catelyn?"
"Slain as well, Id say. A pair of wolfskins. Frey had intended to keep her captive, but perhaps something
went awry."
"So much for guest right."
"The blood is on Walder Frey's hands, not mine."
"Walder Frey is a peevish old man who lives to fondle his young wife and brood over all the slights he's
suffered. I have no doubt he hatched this ugly chicken, but he would never have dared such a thing
without a promise of protection."
"I suppose you would have spared the boy and told Lord Frey you had no need of his allegiance? That
would have driven the old fool right back into Stark's arms and won you another year of war. Explain to
me why it is more noble to kill ten thousand men in battle than a dozen at dinner." When Tyrion had no
reply to that, his father continued. "The price was cheap by any measure. The crown shall grant Riverrun
to Ser Emmon Frey once the Blackfish yields. Lancel and Daven must marry Frey girls, joy is to wed one
of Lord Walder's natural sons when she's old enough, and Roose Bolton becomes Warden of the North
and takes home Arya Stark."
"Arya Stark?" Tyrion cocked his head. "And Bolton? I might have known Frey would not have the
stomach to act alone. But Arya ... Varys and Ser Jacelyn searched for her for more than half a year.
Arya Stark is surely dead."
"So was Renly, until the Blackwater."
"What does that mean?"
"Perhaps Littlefinger succeeded where you and Varys failed. Lord
Bolton will wed the girl to his bastard son. We shall allow the Dreadfort to fight the ironborn for a few
years, and see if he can bring Stark's other bannermen to heel. Come spring, all of them should be at the
end of their strength and ready to bend the knee. The north will go to your son by Sansa Stark ... if you
ever find enough manhood in you to breed one. Lest you forget, it is not only Joffrey who must needs
take a maidenhead."
I had not forgotten, though I'd hoped you had. "And when do you imagine Sansa will be at her most
fertile?" Tyrion asked his father in tones that dripped acid. "Before or after I tell her how we murdered
her mother and her brother?"
Chapter 54


DAVOS
For a moment it seemed as though the king had not heard. Stannis showed no pleasure at the news, no
anger, no disbelief, not even relief. He stared at his Painted Table with teeth clenched hard. "You are
certain?" he asked.
"I am not seeing the body, no, Your Kingliness," said Salladhor Saan. "Yet in the city, the lions prance
and dance. The Red Wedding, the smallfolk are calling it. They swear Lord Frey had the boy's head
hacked off, sewed the head of his direwolf in its place, and nailed a crown about his ears. His lady
mother was slain as well, and thrown naked in the river."
At a wedding, thought Davos. As he sat at his slayer's board, a guest beneath his roof. These Freys are
cursed. He could smell the burning blood again, and hear the leech hissing and spitting on the brazier's hot
coals.
"It was the Lord's wrath that slew him," Ser Axell Florent declared. "It was the hand of WhIlor!"
"Praise the Lord of Light!" sang out Queen Selyse, a pinched thin hard woman with large ears and a
hairy upper lip.
"Is the hand of R'hllor spotted and palsied?" asked Stannis. "This sounds more Walder Frey's handiwork
than any god's."
"R'hllor chooses such instruments as he requires." The ruby at Melisandre's throat shone redly. "His
ways are mysterious, but no man may withstand his fiery will."
"No man may withstand him!" the queen cried.
"Be quiet, woman. You are not at a nightfire now." Stannis considered
the Painted Table. "The wolf leaves no heirs, the kraken too many. The lions will devour them unless ...
Saan, I will require your fastest ships to carry envoys to the Iron islands and White Harbor. I shall offer
pardons." The way he snapped his teeth showed how little he liked that word. "Full pardons, for all those
who repent of treason and swear fealty to their rightful king. They must see. . ."
"They will not." Melisandre's voice was soft. "I am sorry, Your Grace. This is not an end. More false
kings will soon rise to take up the crowns of those whove died."
"More?" Stannis looked as though he would gladly have throttled her. "More usurpers? More traitors?"
"I have seen it in the flames."
Queen Selyse went to the king's side. "The Lord of Light sent Melisandre to guide you to your glory.
Heed her, I beg you. R'hllor's holy flames do not lie."
"There are lies and lies, woman. Even when these flames speak truly, they are full of tricks, it seems to
me."


"An ant who hears the words of a king may not comprehend what he is saying," Melisandre said, "and all
men are ants before the fiery face of god. If sometimes I have mistaken a warning for a prophecy or a
prophecy for a warning, the fault lies in the reader, not the book. But this I know for a certainty - envoys
and pardons will not serve you now, no more than leeches. You must show the realm a sign. A sign that
proves your power!"
"Power~" The king snorted. "I have thirteen hundred men on Dragonstone, another three hundred at
Storm's End." His hand swept over the Painted Table. "The rest of Westeros is in the hands of my foes. I
have no fleet but Salladhor Saan's. No coin to hire sellswords. No prospect of plunder or glory to lure
freeriders to my cause."
"Lord husband," said Queen Selyse, "you have more men than Aegon did three hundred years ago. All
you lack are dragons."
The look Stannis gave her was dark. "Nine mages crossed the sea to hatch Aegon the Third's cache of
eggs. Baelor the Blessed prayed over his for half a year. Aegon the Fourth built dragons of wood and
iron. Aerion Brightflame drank wildfire to transform himself. The mages failed, King Baelor's prayers
went unanswered, the wooden dragons burned, and Prince Aerion died screaming."
Queen Selyse was adamant. "None of these was the chosen of R'hllor. No red comet blazed across the
heavens to herald their coming. None wielded Lightbringer, the red sword of heroes. And none of them
paid the price. Lady Melisandre will tell you, my lord. Only death can pay for life."
"The boy?" The king almost spat the words.
"The boy," agreed the queen.
"The boy," Ser Axell echoed.
"I was sick unto death of this wretched boy before he was even born, the king complained. "His very
name is a roaring in my ears and a dark cloud upon my soul."
"Give the boy to me and you need never hear his name spoken again," Melisandre promised.
No, but you'll hear him screaming when she bums him. Davos held his tongue. It was wiser not to speak
until the king commanded it.
"Give me the boy for R'hllor," the red woman said, "and the ancient prophecy shall be fulfilled. Your
dragon shall awaken and spread his stony wings. The kingdom shall be yours."
Ser Axell went to one knee. "On bended knee I beg you, sire. Wake the stone dragon and let the
traitors tremble. Like Aegon you begin as Lord of Dragonstone. Like Aegon you shall conquer. Let the
false and the fickle feel your flames."
"Your own wife begs as well, lord husband." Queen Selyse went down on both knees before the king,
hands clasped as if in prayer. "Robert and Delena defiled our bed and laid a curse upon our union. This
boy is the foul fruit of their fomications. Lift his shadow from my womb and I will bear you many trueborn
sons, I know it." She threw her arms around his legs. "He is only one boy, born of your brother's lust and
my cousin's shame."
"He is mine own blood. Stop clutching me, woman." King Stannis put a hand on her shoulder,


awkwardly untangling himself from her grasp. "Perhaps Robert did curse our marriage bed. He swore to
me that he never meant to shame me, that he was drunk and never knew which bedchamber he entered
that night. But does it matter? The boy was not at fault, whatever the truth."
Melisand,re put her hand on the king's arm. "The Lord of Light cherishes the innocent. There is no
sacrifice more precious. From his king's blood and his untainted fire, a dragon shall be born."
Stannis did not pull away from Melisandre's touch as he had from his queen's. The red woman was all
Selyse was not; young, full-bodied, and strangely beautiful, with her heart-shaped face, coppery hair, and
unearthly red eyes. "It would be a wondrous thing to see stone come to life," he admitted, grudging. "And
to mount a dragon ... I remember the first time my father took me to court, Robert had to hold my hand.
I could not have been older than four, which would have made him five or six. We agreed afterward that
the king had been as noble as the dragons were fearsome." Stannis snorted. "Years later, our father told
us that Aerys had cut himself on the throne that morning, so his Hand had taken his place. It was Tywin
Lannister who'd so impressed us." His fingers
touched the surface of the table, tracing a path lightly across the varnished hills. "Robert took the skulls
down when he donned the crown, but he could not bear to have them destroyed. Dragon wings over
Westeros ... there would be such a ...
"Your Grace!" Davos edged forward. "Might I speak?"
Stannis closed his mouth so hard his teeth snapped. "My lord of the Rainwood. Why do you think I
made you Hand, if not to speak?" The king waved a hand. "Say what you will."
Warrior, make me brave. "I know little of dragons and less of gods ... but the queen spoke of curses.
No man is as cursed as the kinslayer, in the eyes of gods and men."
"There are no gods save R'hllor and the Other, whose name must not be spoken." Melisandre's mouth
made a hard red line. "And small men curse what they cannot understand."
"I am a small man," Davos admitted, "so tell me why you need this boy Edric Storm to wake your great
stone dragon, my lady." He was determined to say the boy's name as often as he could.
"Only death can pay for life, my lord. A great gift requires a great sacrifice."
"Where is the greatness in a baseborn child?"
"He has kings' blood in his veins. You have seen what even a little of that blood could do - "
"I saw you burn some leeches."
"And two false kings are dead."
"Robb Stark was murdered by Lord Walder of the Crossing, and we have heard that Balon Greyjoy fell
from a bridge. Who did your leeches kill? "
"Do you doubt the power of R'hllor?"
No. Davos remembered too well the living shadow that had squirmed from out her womb that night
beneath Storm's End, its black hands pressing at her thighs. I must go carefully here, or some shadow


may come seeking me as well. "Even an onion smuggler knows two onions from three. You are short a
king, my lady."
Stannis gave a snort of laughter. "He has you there, my lady. Two is not three."
"To be sure, Your Grace. One king might die by chance, even two ... but three? if Joffrey should die in
the midst of all his power, surrounded by his armies and his Kingsguard, would not that show the power
of the Lord at work?"
"It might." The king spoke as if he grudged each word.
"Or not." Davos did his best to hide his fear.
"Joffrey shall die," Queen Selyse declared, serene in her confidence.
"It may be that he is dead already," Ser Axell added.
Stannis looked at them with annoyance. "Are you trained crows, to croak at me in turns? Enough."
"Husband, hear me - " the queen entreated.
"Why? Two is not three. Kings can count as well as smugglers. You may go." Stannis turned his back on
them.
Melisandre helped the queen to her feet. Selyse swept stiffly from the chamber, the red woman trailing
behind. Ser Axell lingered long enough to give Davos one last look. An ugly look on an ugly face, he
thought as he met the stare.
After the others had gone, Davos cleared his throat. The king looked up. "Why are you still here?"
"Sire, about Edric Storm..."
Stannis made a sharp gesture. "Spare me."
Davos persisted. "Your daughter takes her lessons with him, and plays with him every day in Aegon's
Garden."
"I know that."
"Her heart would break if anything ill should -
"I know that as well."
"If you would only see him -
"I have seen him. He looks like Robert. Aye, and worships him. Shall I tell him how often his beloved
father ever gave him a thought? My brother liked the making of children well enough, but after birth they
were a bother."
"He asks after you every day, he -


"You are making me angry, Davos. I will hear no more of this bastard boy."
"His name is Edric Storm, sire."
"I know his name. Was there ever a name so apt? It proclaims his bastardy, his high birth, and the
turmoil he brings with him. Edric Storm. There, I have said it. Are you satisfied, my lord Hand?"
"Edric - " he started.
" - is one boy! He may be the best boy who ever drew breath and it would not matter. My duty is to the
realm." His hand swept across the Painted Table. "How many boys dwell in Westeros? How many girls?
How many men, how many women? The darkness will devour them all, she says. The night that never
ends. She talks of prophecies ... a hero reborn in the sea, living dragons hatched from dead stone ... she
speaks of signs and swears they point to me. I never asked for this, no more than I asked to be king. Yet
dare I disregard her?" He ground his teeth. "We do not choose our destinies. Yet we must ... we must do
our duty, no? Great or small, we must do our duty. Melisandre swears that she has seen me in her
flames, facing the dark with Lightbringer raised on high. Lighthringer!" Stannis gave a derisive snort. "It
glimmers prettily,
I'll grant you, but on the Blackwater this magic sword served me no better than any common steel. A
dragon would have turned that battle. Aegon once stood here as I do, looking down on this table. Do
you think we would name him Aegon the Conqueror today if he had not had dragons?"
"Your Grace," said Davos, "the cost. .
"I know the cost! Last night, gazing into that hearth, I saw things in the flames as well. I saw a king, a
crown of fire on his brows, burning ... burning, Davos. His own crown consumed his flesh and turned him
into ash. Do you think I need Melisandre to tell me what that means? Or you?" The king moved, so his
shadow fell upon King's Landing. "If Joffrey should die ... what is the life of one bastard boy against a
kingdom?"
"Everything," said Davos, softly.
Stannis looked at him, jaw clenched. "Go," the king said at last, "before you talk yourself back into the
dungeon."
Sometimes the storm winds blow so strong a man has no choice but to furl his sails. "Aye, Your Grace."
Davos bowed, but Stannis had seemingly forgotten him already.
it was chilly in the yard when he left the Stone Drum. A wind blew briskly from the cast, making the
banners snap and flap noisily along the walls. Davos could smell salt in the air. The sea. He loved that
smell. It made him want to walk a deck again, to raise his canvas and sail off south to Marya and his two
small ones. He thought of them most every day now, and even more at night. Part of him wanted nothing
so much as to take Devan and go home. I cannot. Not yet. I am a lord now, and the King's Hand, I must
not fail him.
He raised his eyes to gaze up at the walls. In place of merlons, a thousand grotesques and gargoyles
looked down on him, each different from all the others; wyvems, griffins, demons, manticores, minotaurs,
basilisks, hellhounds, cockatrices, and a thousand queerer creatures sprouted from the castle's
battlements as if they'd grown there. And the dragons were everywhere. The Great Hall was a dragon
lying on its belly. Men entered through its open mouth. The kitchens were a dragon curled up in a ball,


with the smoke and steam of the ovens vented through its nostrils. The towers were dragons hunched
above the walls or poised for flight; the Windwyrrn seemed to scream defiance, while Sea Dragon Tower
gazed serenely out across the waves. Smaller dragons framed the gates. Dragon claws emerged from
walls to grasp at torches, great stone wings enfolded the smith and armory, and tails formed arches,
bridges, and exterior stairs.
Davos had often heard it said that the wizards of Valyria did not cut and chisel as common masons did,
but worked stone with fire and magic
as a potter might work clay. But now he wondered. What if they were real dragons, somehow turned to
stone?
"If the red woman brings them to life, the castle will come crashing down, I am thinking. What kind of
dragons are full of rooms and stairs and furniture? And windows. And chimneys. And privy shafts."
Davos turned to find Salladhor Saan beside him. "Does this mean you have forgiven my treachery,
Salla?"
The old pirate wagged a finger at him. "Forgiving, yes. Forgetting, no. All that good gold on Claw isle
that might have been mine, it makes me old and tired to think of it. When I die impoverished, my wives
and concubines will curse you, Onion Lord. Lord Celtigar had many fine wines that now I am not tasting,
a sea eagle he had trained to fly from the wrist, and a magic horn to summon krakens from the deep.
Very useful such a horn would be, to pull down Tyroshi and other vexing creatures. But do I have this
horn to blow? No, because the king made my old friend his Hand." He slipped his arm through Davos's
and said, "The queen's men love you not, old friend. I am hearing that a certain Hand has been making
friends of his own. This is true, yes?"
You hear too much, you old pirate. A smuggler had best know men as well as tides, or he would not live
to smuggle long. The queen's men might remain fervent followers of the Lord of Light, but the lesser folk
of Dragonstone were drifting back to the gods they'd known all their lives. They said Stannis was
ensorceled, that Melisandre had turned him away from the Seven to bow before some demon out of
shadow, and ... worst sin of all ... that she and her god had failed him. And there were knights and
lordlings who felt the same. Davos had sought them out, choosing them with the same care with which
he'd once picked his crews. Ser Gerald Gower fought stoutly on the Blackwater, but afterward had been
heard to say that R'hllor must be a feeble god to let his followers be chased off by a dwarf and a dead
man. Ser Andrew Estermont was the king's cousin, and had served as his squire years ago. The Bastard
of Nightsong had commanded the rearguard that allowed Stannis to reach the safety of Salladhor Saan's
galleys, but he worshiped the Warrior with a faith as fierce as he was. King's men, not queen's men. But
it would not do to boast of them.
"A certain Lysene pirate once told me that a good smuggler stays out of sight," Davos replied carefully.
"Black sails, muffled oars, and a crew that knows how to hold their tongues."
The Lyseni laughed. "A crew with no tongues is even better. Big strong mutes who cannot read or
write." But then he grew more somber. "But I am glad to know that someone watches your back, old
friend. Will the king give the boy to the red priestess, do you think? one little dragon could end this great
big war."
Old habit made him reach for his luck, but his fingerbones no longer hung about his neck, and he found
nothing. "He will not do it," said Davos. "He could not harm his own blood."


"Lord Renly will be glad to hear this."
"Renly was a traitor in arms. Edric Storm is innocent of any crime. His Grace is a just man."
Salla shrugged. "We shall be seeing. Or you shall. For myself, I am returning to sea. Even now, rascally
smugglers may be sailing across the Blackwater Bay, hoping to avoid paying their lord's lawful duties."
He slapped Davos on the back. "Take care. You with your mute friends. You are grown so very great
now, yet the higher a man climbs the farther he has to fall."
Davos reflected on those words as he climbed the steps of Sea Dragon Tower to the maester's
chambers below the rookery. He did not need Salla to tell him that he had risen too high. I cannot read, I
cannot write, the lords despise me, I know nothing of ruling, how can I be the King's Hand? I belong on
the deck of a ship, not in a castle tower.
He had said as much to Maester Pylos. "You are a notable captain," the maester replied. "A captain
rules his ship, does he not? He must navigate treacherous waters, set his sails to catch the rising wind,
know when a storm is coming and how best to weather it. This is much the same."
Pylos meant it kindly, but his assurances rang hollow. "It is not at all the same!" Davos had protested. "A
kingdom's not a ship ... and a good thing, or this kingdom would be sinking. I know wood and rope and
water, yes, but how will that serve me now? Where do I find the wind to blow King Stannis to his
throne?"
The maester laughed at that. "And there you have it, my lord. Words are wind, you know, and you've
blown mine away with your good sense. His Grace knows what he has in you, I think."
"Onions," said Davos glumly. "That is what he has in me. The King's Hand should be a highborn lord,
someone wise and learned, a battle commander or a great knight . . . "
"Ser Ryam Redwyne was the greatest knight of his day, and one of the worst Hands ever to serve a
king. Septon Murmison's prayers worked miracles, but as Hand he soon had the whole realm praying for
his death. Lord Butterwell was renowned for wit, Myles Smallwood for courage, Ser Otto Hightower for
learning, yet they failed as Hands, every one. As for birth, the dragonkings oft chose Hands from
amongst their own blood, with results as various as Baelor Breakspear and Maegor the Cruel. Against
this, you have Septon Barth, the blacksmith's son the Old King plucked from the Red Keep's library,
who gave the realm forty years of peace and plenty." Pylos smiled. "Read your history, Lord Davos, and
you will see that your doubts are groundless."
"How can I read history, when I cannot read?"
"Any man can read, my lord," said Maester Pylos. "There is no magic needed, nor high birth, I am
teaching the art to your son, at the king's command. Let me teach you as well."
It was a kindly offer, and not one that Davos could refuse. And so every day he repaired to the
maester's chambers high atop Sea Dragon Tower, to frown over scrolls and parchments and great
leather tomes and try to puzzle out a few more words. His efforts often gave him headaches, and made
him feel as big a fool as Patchface besides. His son Devan was not yet twelve, yet he was well ahead of
his father, and for Princess Shireen and Edric Storm reading seemed as natural as breathing. When it
came to books, Davos was more a child than any of them. Yet he persisted. He was the King's Hand
now, and a King's Hand should read.


The narrow twisting steps of Sea Dragon Tower had been a sore trial to Maester Cressen after he
broke his hip. Davos still found himself missing the old man. He thought Stannis must as well. Pylos
seemed clever and diligent and well-meaning, but he was so young, and the king did not confide in him as
he had in Cressen. The old man had been with Stannis so long ... Until he ran afoul of Melisandre, and
died for it.
At the top of the steps Davos heard a soft jingle of bells that could only herald Patchface. The princess's
fool was waiting outside the maester's door for her like a faithful hound. Dough-soft and
slump-shouldered, his broad face tattooed in a motley pattern of red and green squares, Patchface wore
a helm made of a rack of deer antlers strapped to a tin bucket. A dozen bells hung from the tines and
rang when he moved ... which meant constantly, since the fool seldom stood still. He jingled and jangled
his way everywhere he went; small wonder that Pylos had exiled him from Shireen's lessons. "Under the
sea the old fish eat the young fish," the fool muttered at Davos. He bobbed his head, and his bells clanged
and chimed and sang. "I know, I know, oh oh oh."
"Up here the young fish teach the old fish," said Davos, who never felt so ancient as when he sat down
to try and read. it might have been different if aged Maester Cressen had been the one teaching him, but
Pylos was young enough to be his son.
He found the maester seated at his long wooden table covered with books and scrolls, across from the
three children. Princess Shireen sat between the two boys. Even now Davos could take great pleasure in
the sight of his own blood keeping company with a princess and a king's bastard. Devan will be a lord
now, not merely a knight. The Lord of the Rainwood. Davos took more pride in that than in wearing the
title himself. He reads too. He reads and he -,wites, as if he had been born to it. Pylos had naught but
praise for his diligence, and the master-at-arms said Devan was showing promise with sword and lance
as well. And he is a
godly lad, too. "My brothers have ascended to the Hall of Light, to sit beside the Lord," Devan had said
when his father told him how his four elder brothers had died. "I will pray for them at the nightfires, and
for you as well, Father, so you might walk in the Light of the Lord till the end of your days."
"Good morrow to you, Father," the boy greeted him. He looks so much like Dale did at his age, Davos
thought. His eldest had never dressed so fine as Devan in his squire's raiment, to be sure, but they shared
the same square plain face, the same forthright brown eyes, the same thin brown flyaway hair. Devan's
cheeks and chin were dusted with blond hair, a fuzz that would have shamed a proper peach, though the
boy was fiercely proud of his "beard." just as Dale was proud of his, once. Devan was the oldest of the
three children at the table.
Yet Edric Storm was three inches taller and broader in the chest and shoulders. He was his father's son
in that; nor did he ever miss a morning's work with sword and shield. Those old enough to have known
Robert and Renly as children said that the bastard boy had more of their look than Stannis had ever
shared; the coal-black hair, the deep blue eyes, the mouth, the jaw, the cheekbones. Only his ears
reminded you that his mother had been a Florent.
"Yes, good morrow, my lord," Edric echoed. The boy could be fierce and proud, but the maesters and
castellans and masters-at-arms who'd raised him had schooled him well in courtesy. "Do you come from
my uncle? How fares His Grace?"
"Well," Davos lied. If truth be told, the king had a haggard, haunted look about him, but he saw no need
to burden the boy with his fears. "I hope I have not disturbed your lesson."


"We had just finished, my lord," Maester Pylos said.
"We were reading about King Daeron the First." Princess Shireen was a sad, sweet, gentle child, far
from pretty. Stannis had given her his square jaw and Selyse her Florent ears, and the gods in their cruel
wisdom had seen fit to compound her homeliness by afflicting her with greyscale in the cradle. The
disease had left one cheek and half her neck grey and cracked and hard, though it had spared both her
life and her sight. "He went to war and conquered Dome. The Young Dragon, they called him."
"He worshiped false gods," said Devan, "but he was a great king otherwise, and very brave in battle."
"He was," agreed Edric Storm, "but my father was braver. The Young Dragon never won three battles in
a day."
The princess looked at him wide-eyed. "Did Uncle Robert win three battles in a day?"
The bastard nodded. "It was when he'd first come home to call his banners. Lords Grandison, Cafferen,
and Fell planned to join their
strength at Surnmerhall and march on Storm's End, but he learned their plans from an informer and rode
at once with all his knights and squires. As the plotters came up on Surnmerhall one by one, he defeated
each of them in turn before they could join up with the others. He slew Lord Fell in single combat and
captured his son Silveraxe."
Devan looked to Pylos. "Is that how it happened?"
"I said so, didn't I?" Edric Storm said before the maester could reply. "He smashed all three of them, and
fought so bravely that Lord Grandison and Lord Cafferen became his men afterward, and Silveraxe too.
No one ever beat my father."
"Edric, you ought not boast," Maester Pylos said. "King Robert suffered defeats like any other man.
Lord Tyrell bested him at Ashford, and he lost many a tourney tilt as well."
"He won more than he lost, though. And he killed Prince Rhaegar on the Trident."
"That he did," the maester agreed. "But now I must give my attention to Lord Davos, who has waited so
patiently. We will read more of King Daeron's Conquest of Dome on the morrow."
Princess Shireen and the boys said their farewells courteously. When they had taken their leaves,
Maester Pylos moved closer to Davos. "My lord, perhaps you would like to try a bit of Conquest of
Dome as well?" He slid the slender leather-bound book across the table. "King Daeron wrote with an
elegant simplicity, and his history is rich with blood, battle, and bravery. Your son is quite engrossed."
"My son is not quite twelve. I am the King's Hand. Give me another letter, if you would."
"As you wish, my lord." Maester Pylos rummaged about his table, unrolling and then discarding various
scraps of parchment. "There are no new letters. Perhaps an old one. . . "
Davos enjoyed a good story as well as any man, but Stannis had not named him Hand for his enjoyment,
he felt. His first duty was to help his king rule, and for that he must needs understand the words the
ravens brought. The best way to learn a thing was to do it, he had found; sails or scrolls, it made no
matter.


"This might serve our purpose." Pylos passed him a letter.
Davos flattened down the little square of crinkled parchment and squinted at the tiny crabbed letters.
Reading was hard on the eyes, that much he had learned early. Sometimes he wondered if the Citadel
offered a champion's purse to the maester who wrote the smallest hand. Pylos had laughed at the notion,
but ...
"To the ... five kings," read Davos, hesitating briefly over five, which he did not often see written out.
"The king ... be ... the king ... beware?
"Beyond," the maester corrected.
Davos grimaced. "The King beyond the Wall comes ... comes south. He leads a ... a ... fast..."
"Vast."
". . . a vast host of wil ... wild ... wildlings. Lord M ... Mmmor ... Mormont sent a ... raven from the ...
ha ... ha..."
"Haunted. The haunted forest." Pylos underlined the words with the point of his finger.
". . . the haunted forest. He is ... under a ... attack?
"Yes."
Pleased, he plowed onward. "Oth ... other birds have come since, with no words. We ... fear ...
Mormont slain with all ... with all his ... stench ... no, strength. We fear Mormont slain with all his
strength. . . " Davos suddenly realized just what he was reading. He turned the letter over, and saw that
the wax that had sealed it had been black. "This is from the Night's Watch. Maester, has King Stannis
seen this letter?"
"I brought it to Lord Alester when it first arrived. He was the Hand then. I believed he discussed it with
the queen. When I asked him if he wished to send a reply, he told me not to be a fool. 'His Grace lacks
the men to fight his own battles, he has none to waste on wildlings/ he said to me."
That was true enough. And this talk of five kings would certainly have angered Stannis. "Only a starving
man begs bread from a beggar," he muttered.
"Pardon, my lord?"
"Something my wife said once." Davos drummed his shortened fingers against the tabletop. The first time
he had seen the Wall he had been younger than Devan, serving aboard the Cobblecat under Roro
Uhoris, a Tyroshi known up and down the narrow sea as the Blind Bastard, though he was neither blind
nor baseborn. Roro had sailed past Skagos into the Shivering Sea, visiting a hundred little coves that had
never seen a trading ship before. He brought steel; swords, axes, helms, good chainmail hauberks, to
trade for furs, ivory, amber, and obsidian. When the Cobblecat turned back south her holds were
stuffed, but in the Bay of Seals three black galleys came out to herd her into Eastwatch. They lost their
cargo and the Bastard lost his head, for the crime of trading weapons to the wildlings.
Davos had traded at Eastwatch in his smuggling days. The black brothers made hard enemies but good


customers, for a ship with the right cargo. But while he might have taken their coin, he had never
forgotten how the Blind Bastard's head had rolled across the Cobblecat's deck. "I met some wildlings
when I was a boy," he told Maester Pylos. "They were fair thieves but bad hagglers. one made off with
our cabin girl. All in all, they seemed men like any other men, some fair, some foul."
"Men are men," Maester Pylos agreed. "Shall we return to our reading, my lord Hand?"
I am the Hand of the King, yes. Stannis might be the King of Westeros in name, but in truth he was the
King of the Painted Table. He held Dragonstone and Storm's End, and had an ever-more-uneasy alliance
with Salladhor Saan, but that was all. How could the Watch have looked to him for help? They may not
know how weak he is, how lost his cause. "King Stannis never saw this letter, you are quite certain? Nor
Melisandre? "
"No. Should I bring it to them? Even now?"
"No," Davos said at once. "You did your duty when you brought it to Lord Alester." If Melisandre knew
of this letter ... What was it she had said? One whose name may not be spoken is marshaling his power,
Davos Seaworth. Soon comes the cold, and the night that never ends ... And Stannis had seen a vision in
the flames, a ring of torches in the snow with terror all around.
"My lord, are you unwell?" asked Pylos.
I am frightened, Maester, he might have said. Davos was remembering a tale Salladhor Saan had told
him, of how Azor Ahai tempered Lightbringer by thrusting it through the heart of the wife he loved. He
slew his wife to fight the dark. If Stannis is Azor Ahai come again, does that mean Edric Storm must play
the part of Nissa Nissa? "I was thinking, Maester. My pardons." What harm if some wildling king
conquers the north? It was not as though Stannis held the north. His Grace could scarcely be expected to
defend people who refused to acknowledge him as king. "Give me another letter," he said abruptly. "This
one is too . . .
". . . difficult?" suggested Pylos.
Soon comes the cold, whispered Melisandre, and the night that never ends. "Troubling," said Davos.
"Too ... troubling. A different letter, please."
Chapter 55
JON
They woke to the smoke of Mole's Town burning.
Atop the King's Tower, Jon Snow leaned on the padded crutch that Maester Aemon had given him and
watched the grey plume rise. Styr had lost all hope of taking Castle Black unawares when Jon escaped
him, yet even so, he need not have warned of his approach so bluntly. You may kill us, he reflected, but
no one will be butchered in their beds. That much I did, at least.
His leg still hurt like blazes when he put his weight on it. He'd needed Clydas to help him don his


fresh-washed blacks and lace up his boots that morning, and by the time they were done he'd wanted to
drown himself in the milk of the poppy. Instead he had settled for half a cup of dreamwine, a chew of
willow bark, and the crutch. The beacon was burning on Weatherback Ridge, and the Night's Watch had
need of every man.
"I can fight," he insisted when they tried to stop him.
"Your leg's healed, is it?" Noye snorted. "You won't mind me giving it a little kick, then?"
"I'd sooner you didn't. It's stiff, but I can hobble around well enough, and stand and fight if you have
need of me."
"I have need of every man who knows which end of the spear to stab into the wildlings."
"The pointy end." Jon had told his little sister something like that once, he remembered.
Noye rubbed the bristle on his chin. "Might be you'll do. We'll put you on a tower with a longbow, but if
you bloody well fall off don't come crying to me."
He could see the kingsroad wending its way south through stony brown fields and over windswept hills.
The Magnar would be coming up that road before the day was done, his Thenns marching behind him
with axes and spears in their hands and their bronze-and-leather shields on their backs. Grigg the Goat,
Quort, Big Boil, and the rest will be coming as well. And Ygritte. The wildlings had never been his
friends, he had not allowed them to be his friends, but her ...
He could feel the throb of pain where her arrow had gone through the meat and muscle of his thigh. He
remembered the old man's eyes too, and the black blood rushing from his throat as the storm cracked
overhead. But he remembered the grotto best of all, the look of her naked in the torchlight, the taste of
her mouth when it opened under his. Ygritte, stay away. Go south and raid, go hide in one of those
roundtowers you liked so well. You'll find nothing here but death.
Across the yard, one of the bowmen on the roof of the old Flint Barracks had unlaced his breeches and
was pissing through a crenel. Mully, he knew from the man's greasy orange hair. Men in black cloaks
were visible on other roofs and tower tops as well, though nine of every ten happened to be made of
straw. "The scarecrow sentinels," Donal Noye called them. Only we're the crows, Jon mused, and most
of us were scared enough.
Whatever you called them, the straw soldiers had been Maester Aemon's notion. They had more
breeches and jerkins and tunics in the storerooms than they'd had men to fill them, so why not stuff some
with straw, drape a cloak around their shoulders, and set them to standing watches? Noye had placed
them on every tower and in half the windows. Some were even clutching spears, or had crossbows
cocked under their arms. The hope was that the Therms would see them from afar and decide that Castle
Black was too well defended to attack.
Jon had six scarecrows sharing the roof of the King's Tower with him, along with two actual breathing
brothers. Deaf Dick Follard sat in a crenel, methodically cleaning and oiling the mechanism of his
crossbow to make sure the wheel turned smoothly, while the Oldtown boy wandered restlessly around
the parapets, fussing with the clothes on straw men. Maybe he thinks they will fight better if they're posed
just right. Or maybe this waiting is fraying his nerves the way it's fraying mine.
The boy claimed to be eighteen, older than Jon, but he was green as summer grass for all that. Satin,


they called him, even in the wool and mail and boiled leather of the Night's Watch; the name he'd gotten
in the brothel where he'd been born and raised. He was pretty as a girl with his dark eyes, soft skin, and
raven's ringlets. Half a year at Castle Black had toughened up his hands, however, and Noye said he was
passable
with a crossbow. Whether he had the courage to face what was coming, though ...
Jon used the crutch to limp across the tower top. The King's Tower was not the castle's tallest - the
high, slim, crumbling Lance held that honor, though Othell Yarwyck had been heard to say it might topple
any day. Nor was the King's Tower strongest - the Tower of Guards beside the kingsroad would be a
tougher nut to crack. But it was tall enough, strong enough, and well placed beside the Wall, overlooking
the gate and the foot of the wooden stair.
The first time he had seen Castle Black with his own eyes, Jon had wondered why anyone would be so
foolish as to build a castle without walls. How could it be defended?
"It can't," his uncle told him. "That is the point. The Night's Watch is pledged to take no part in the
quarrels of the realm. Yet over the centuries certain Lords Commander, more proud than wise, forgot
their vows and near destroyed us all with their ambitions. Lord Commander Runcel Hightower tried to
bequeathe the Watch to his bastard son. Lord Commander Rodrik Flint thought to make himself
King-beyond-theWall. Tristan Mudd, Mad Marq Rankenfell, Robin Hill ... did you know that six
hundred years ago, the commanders at Snowgate and the Nightfort went to war against each other? And
when the Lord Commander tried to stop them, they joined forces to murder him? The Stark in Winterfell
had to take a hand ... and both their heads. Which he did easily, because their strongholds were not
defensible. The Night's Watch had nine hundred and ninety-six Lords Commander before Jeor
Mormont, most of them men of courage and honor ... but we have had cowards and fools as well, our
tyrants and our madmen. We survive because the lords and kings of the Seven Kingdoms know that we
pose no threat to them, no matter who should lead us. Our only foes are to the north, and to the north we
have the Wall."
Only now those foes have gotten past the Wall to come up from the south, Jon reflected, and the lords
and kings of the Seven Kingdoms have forgotten us. We are caught between the hammer and the anvil.
Without a wall Castle Black could not be held; Donal Noye knew that as well as any. "The castle does
them no good," the armorer told his little garrison. "Kitchens, common hall, stables, even the towers ... let
them take it all. We'll empty the armory and move what stores we can to the top of the Wall, and make
our stand around the gate."
So Castle Black had a wall of sorts at last, a crescent-shaped barricade ten feet high made of stores;
casks of nails and barrels of salt mutton, crates, bales of black broadcloth, stacked logs, sawn timbers,
firehardened stakes, and sacks and sacks of grain. The crude rampart enclosed the two things most
worth defending; the gate to the north, and the foot
of the great wooden switchback stair that clawed and climbed its way up the face of the Wall like a
drunken thunderbolt, supported by wooden beams as big as tree trunks driven deep into the ice.
The last few moles were still making the long climb, Jon saw, urged on by his brothers. Grenn was
carrying a little boy in his arms, while Pyp, two flights below, let an old man lean upon his shoulder. The
oldest villagers still waited below for the cage to make its way back down to them. He saw a mother
pulling along two children, one on either hand, as an older boy ran past her up the steps. Two hundred
feet above them, Sky Blue Su and Lady Meliana (who was no lady, all her friends agreed) stood on a
landing, looking south. They had a better view of the smoke than he did, no doubt. Jon wondered about


the villagers who had chosen not to flee. There were always a few, too stubborn or too stupid or too
brave to run, a few who preferred to fight or hide or bend the knee. Maybe the Therms would spare
them.
The thing to do would be to take the attack to them, he thought. With fifty rangers well mounted, we
could cut them apart on the road. They did not have fifty rangers, though, nor half as many horses. The
garrison had not returned, and there was no way to know just where they were, or even whether the
riders that Noye had sent out had reached them.
We are the garrison, Jon told himself, and look at us. The brothers Bowen Marsh had left behind were
old men, cripples, and green boys, just as Donal Noye had warned him. He could see some wrestling
barrels up the steps, others on the barricade; stout old Kegs, as slow as ever, Spare Boot hopping along
briskly on his carved wooden leg, half-mad Easy who fancied himself Florian the Fool reborn, Dornish
Dilly, Red Alyn of the Rosewood, Young Henly (well past fifty), Old Henly (well past seventy), Hairy
Hal, Spotted Pate of Maidenpool. A couple of them saw Jon looking down from atop the King's Tower
and waved up at him. others turned away. They still think me a tumcloak. That was a bitter draft to drink,
but Jon could not blame them. He was a bastard, after all. Everyone knew that bastards were wanton
and treacherous by nature, having been bom of lust and deceit. And he had made as many enemies as
friends at Castle Black ... Rast, for one. Jon had once threatened to have Ghost rip his throat out unless
he stopped tormenting Samwell Tarly, and Rast did not forget things like that. He was raking dry leaves
into piles under the stairs just now, but every so often he stopped long enough to give Jon a nasty look.
"No," Donal Noye roared at three of the Mole's Town men, down below. "The pitch goes to the hoist,
the oil up the steps, crossbow bolts to the fourth, fifth, and sixth landings, spears to first and second.
Stack the lard under the stair, yes, there, behind the planks. The casks of meat are for the barricade.
Now, you poxy plow pushers, NOW!"
He has a lord's voice, Jon thought. His father had always said that in battle a captain's lungs were as
important as his sword arm. "It does not matter how brave or brilliant a man is, if his commands cannot
be heard," Lord Eddard told his sons, so Robb and he used to climb the towers of Winterfell to shout at
each other across the yard. Donal Noye could have drowned out both of them. The moles all went in
terror of him, and rightfully so, since he was always threatening to rip their heads off.
Three-quarters of the village had taken Jon's warning to heart and come to Castle Black for refuge.
Noye had decreed that every man still spry enough to hold a spear or swing an axe would help defend
the barricade, else they could damn well go home and take their chances with the Therms. He had
emptied the armory to put good steel in their hands; big double-bladed axes, razor-sharp daggers,
longswords, maces, spiked morningstars. Clad in studded leather jerkins and mail hauberks, with greaves
for their legs and gorgets to keep their heads on their shoulders, a few of them even looked like soldiers.
In a bad light. If you squint.
Noye had put the women and children to work as well. Those too young to fight would carry water and
tend the fires, the Mole's Town midwife would assist Clydas and Maester Aemon with any wounded,
and Three-Finger Hobb suddenly had more spit boys, kettle stirrers, and onion choppers than he knew
what to do with. Two of the whores had even offered to fight, and had shown enough skill with the
crossbow to be given a place on the steps forty feet up.
"It's cold." Satin stood with his hands tucked into his armpits under his cloak. His cheeks were bright
red.
Jon made himself smile. "The Frostfangs are cold. This is a brisk autumn day."


"I hope I never see the Frostfangs then. I knew a girl in Oldtown who liked to ice her wine. That's the
best place for ice, I think. In wine." Satin glanced south, frowned. "You think the scarecrow sentinels
scared them off, my lord?"
"We can hope." It was possible, Jon supposed ... but more likely the wildlings had simply paused for a
bit of rape and plunder in Mole's Town. Or maybe Styr was waiting for nightfall, to move up under cover
of darkness.
Midday came and went, with still no sign of Therms on the kingsroad. Jon heard footsteps inside the
tower, though, and Owen the Oaf popped up out of the trapdoor, red-faced from the climb. He had a
basket of buns under one arm, a wheel of cheese under the other, a bag of onions dangling from one
hand. "Hobb said to feed you, in case you're stuck up here awhile."
That, or for our last meal. "Thank him for us, Owen."
Dick Follard was deaf as a stone, but his nose worked well enough.
The buns were still warm from the oven when he went digging in the basket and plucked one out. He
found a crock of butter as well, and spread some with his dagger. "Raisins," he announced happily.
"Nuts, too." His speech was thick, but easy enough to understand once you got used to it.
"You can have mine too," said Satin. "I'm not hungry."
"Eat," Jon told him. "There's no knowing when you'll have another chance." He took two buns himself .
The nuts were pine nuts, and besides the raisins there were bits of dried apple.
,,will the wildlings come today, Lord Snow?" Owen asked.
"You'll know if they do," said Jon. "Listen for the horns."
"Two. Two is for wildlings." Owen was tall, towheaded, and amiable, a tireless worker and surprisingly
deft when it came to working wood and fixing catapults and the like, but as he'd gladly tell you, his
mother had dropped him on his head when he was a baby, and half his wits had leaked out through his
ear.
"You remember where to go?" Jon asked him.
"I'm to go to the stairs, Donal Noye says. I'm to go up to the third landing and shoot my crossbow down
at the wildlings if they try to climb over the barrier. The third landing, one two three." His head bobbed
up and down. "If the wildlings attack, the king will come and help us, won't he? He's a mighty warrior,
King Robert. He's sure to come. Maester Aemon sent him a bird."
There was no use telling him that Robert Baratheon was dead. He would forget it, as he'd forgotten it
before. "Maester Aemon sent him a bird," Jon agreed. That seemed to make Owen happy.
Maester Aemon had sent a lot of birds ... not to one king, but to four. Wildlings at the gate, the message
ran. The realm in danger. Send all the help you can to Castle Black, Even as far as Oldtown and the
Citadel the ravens flew, and to half a hundred mighty lords in their castles. The northern lords offered
their best hope, so to them Aemon had sent two birds. To the Umbers and the Boltons, to Castle
Cerwyn and Torrhen's Square, Karhold and Deepwood Motte, to Bear Island, Oldcastle, Widow's


Watch, White Harbor, Barrowton, and the Rills, to the mountain fastnesses of the Liddles, the Burleys,
the Norreys, the Harclays, and the Wulls, the black birds brought their plea. Wildlings at the gate. The
north in danger. Come with all your strength.
Well, ravens might have wings, but lords and kings do not. If help was coming, it would not come today.
As morning turned to afternoon, the smoke of Mole's Town blew away and the southern sky was clear
again. No clouds, thought Jon. That was good. Rain or snow could doom them all.
Clydas and Maester Aemon rode the winch cage up to safety at the
top of the Wall, and most of the Mole's Town wives as well. Men in black cloaks paced restlessly on
the tower tops and shouted back and forth across the courtyards. Septon Cellador led the men on the
barricade in a prayer, beseeching the Warrior to give them strength. Deaf Dick Follard curled up beneath
his cloak and went to sleep. Satin walked a hundred leagues in circles, round and round the crenellations.
The Wall wept and the sun crept across a hard blue sky. Near evenfall, Owen the Oaf returned with a
loaf of black bread and a pail of Hobb's best mutton, cooked in a thick broth of ale and onions. Even
Dick woke up for that. They ate every bit of it, using chunks of bread to wipe the bottom of the pail. By
the time they were done the sun was low in the west, the shadows sharp and black throughout the castle.
"Light the fire," Jon told Satin, "and fill the kettle with oil."
He went downstairs himself to bar the door, to try and work some of the stiffness from his leg. That was
a mistake, and Jon soon knew it, but he clutched the crutch and saw it through all the same. The door to
the King's Tower was oak studded with iron. It might delay the Thenns, but it would not stop them if they
wanted to come in. Jon slammed the bar down in its notches, paid a visit to the privy - it might well be his
last chance - and hobbled back up to the roof, grimacing at the pain.
The west had gone the color of a blood bruise, but the sky above was cobalt blue, deepening to purple,
and the stars were coming out. Jon sat between two merlons with only a scarecrow for company and
watched the Stallion gallop up the sky. Or was it the Horned Lord? He wondered where Ghost was
now. He wondered about Ygritte as well, and told himself that way lay madness.
They came in the night, of course. Like thieves, Jon thought. Like murderers.
Satin pissed himself when the horns blew, but Jon pretended not to notice. "Go shake Dick by the
shoulder," he told the Oldtown boy, "else he's liable to sleep through the fight."
"I'm frightened." Satin's face was a ghastly white.
"So are they." Jon leaned his crutch up against a merlon and took up his longbow, bending the smooth
thick Dornish yew to slip a bowstring through the notches. "Don't waste a quarrel unless you know you
have a good clean shot," he said when Satin returned from waking Dick. "We have an ample supply up
here, but ample doesn't mean inexhaustible. And step behind a merlon to reload, don't try and hide in
back of a scarecrow. They're made of straw, an arrow will punch through them." He did not bother
telling Dick Follard anything. Dick could read your lips if there was enough light and he gave a damn
what you were saying, but he knew it all already.
The three of them took up positions on three sides of the round tower.
Jon hung a quiver from his belt and pulled an arrow. The shaft was black, the fletching grey. As he
notched it to his string, he remembered something that Theon Greyjoy had once said after a hunt. "The


boar can keep his tusks and the bear his claws," he had declared, smiling that way he did. "There's
nothing half so mortal as a grey goose feather."
Jon had never been half the hunter that Theon was, but he was no stranger to the longbow either. There
were dark shapes slipping around the armory, backs against the stone, but he could not see them well
enough to waste an arrow. He heard distant shouts, and saw the archers on the Tower of Guards loosing
shafts at the ground. That was too far off to concern Jon. But when he glimpsed three shadows detach
themselves from the old stables fifty yards away, he stepped up to the crenel, raised his bow, and drew.
They were running, so he led them, waiting, waiting ...
The arrow made a soft hiss as it left his string. A moment later there was a grunt, and suddenly only two
shadows were loping across the yard. They ran all the faster, but Jon had already pulled a second arrow
from his quiver. This time he hurried the shot too much, and missed. The wildlings were gone by the time
he nocked again. He searched for another target, and found four, rushing around the empty shell of the
Lord Commander's Keep. The moonlight glimmered off their spears and axes, and the gruesome devices
on their round leathern shields; skulls and bones, serpents, bear claws, twisted demonic faces. Free folk,
he knew. The Therms carried shields of black boiled leather with bronze rims and bosses, but theirs were
plain and unadorned. These were the lighter wicker shields of raiders.
Jon pulled the goose feather back to his ear, aimed, and loosed the arrow, then nocked and drew and
loosed again. The first shaft pierced the bearclaw shield, the second one a throat. The wildling screamed
as he went down. He heard the deep thrum of Deaf Dick's crossbow to his left, and Satin's a moment
later. "I got one!" the boy cried hoarsely. "I got one in the chest."
"Get another," Jon called.
He did not have to search for targets now; only choose them. He dropped a wildling archer as he was
fitting an arrow to his string, then sent a shaft toward the axeman hacking at the door of Hardin's Tower.
That time he missed, but the arrow quivering in the oak made the wildling reconsider. It was only as he
was running off that Jon recognized Big Boil. Half a heartbeat later, old Mully put an arrow through his
leg from the roof of the Flint Barracks, and he crawled off bleeding. That will stop him bitching about his
boil, Jon thought.
When his quiver was empty, he went to get another, and moved to a different crenel, side by side with
Deaf Dick Follard. Jon got off three
arrows for every bolt Deaf Dick discharged, but that was the advantage of the longbow. The crossbow
penetrated better, some insisted, but it was slow and cumbersome to reload. He could hear the wildlings
shouting to each other, and somewhere to the west a warhom blew. The world was moonlight and
shadow, and time became an endless round of notch and draw and loose. A wildling arrow ripped
through the throat of the straw sentinel beside him, but Jon Snow scarcely noticed. Give me one clean
shot at the Magnar of Thenn, he prayed to his father's gods. The Magnar at least was a foe that he could
hate. Give me Styr.
His fingers were growing stiff and his thumb was bleeding, but still Jon notched and drew and loosed. A
gout of flame caught his eye, and he turned to see door of the common hall afire. It was only a few
moments before the whole great timbered hall was burning. Three-Finger Hobb and his Mole's Town
helpers were safe atop the Wall, he knew, but it felt like a punch in the belly all the same. "JON," Deaf
Dick yelled in his thick voice, "the armory." They were on the roof, he saw. One had a torch. Dick
hopped up on the crenel for a better shot, jerked his crossbow to his shoulder, and sent a quarrel
thrumming toward the torch man. He missed.


The archer down below him didn't.
Follard never made a sound, only toppled forward headlong over the parapet. It was a hundred feet to
the yard below. Jon heard the thump as he was peering round a straw soldier, trying to see where the
arrow had come from. Not ten feet from Deaf Dick's body, he glimpsed a leather shield, a ragged cloak,
a mop of thick red hair. Kissed by fire, he thought, lucky. He brought his bow up, but his fingers would
not part, and she was gone as suddenly as she'd appeared. He swiveled, cursing, and loosed a shaft at
the men on the armory roof instead, but he missed them as well.
By then the east stables were afire too, black smoke and wisps of burning hay pouring from the stalls.
When the roof collapsed, a flames rose up roaring, so loud they almost drowned out the warhorns of the
Thenns. Fifty of them were pounding up the kingsroad in tight column, their shields held up above their
heads. Others were swarming through the vegetable garden, across the flagstone yard, around the old
dry well. Three had hacked their way through the doors of Maester Aemon's apartments in the timber
keep below the rookery, and a desperate fight was going on atop the Silent Tower, longswords against
bronze axes. None of that mattered. The dance has moved on, he thought.
Jon hobbled across to Satin and grabbed him by the shoulder. "With me," he shouted. Together they
moved to the north parapet, where the King's Tower looked down on the gate and Donal Noye's
makeshift wall of logs and barrels and sacks of corn. The Therms were there before them.
They wore halffielms, and had thin bronze disks sewn to their long leather shirts. Many wielded bronze
axes, though a few were chipped stone. More had short stabbing spears with leaf -shaped heads that
gleamed redly in the light from the burning stables. They were screaming in the Old Tongue as they
stormed the barricade, jabbing with their spears, swinging their bronze axes, spilling corn and blood with
equal abandon while crossbow quarrels and arrows rained down on them from the archers that Donal
Noye had posted on the stair.
"What do we do?" Satin shouted.
"We kill them," Jon shouted back, a black arrow in his hand.
No archer could have asked for an easier shot. The Thenns had their backs to the King's Tower as they
charged the crescent, clambering over bags and barrels to reach the men in black. Both Jon and Satin
chanced to choose the same target. He had just reached the top of the barricade when an arrow
sprouted from his neck and a quarrel between his shoulder blades. Half a heartbeat later a longsword
took him in the belly and he fell back onto the man behind him. Jon reached down to his quiver and found
it empty again. Satin was winding back his crossbow. He left him to it and went for more arrows, but he
hadn't taken more than three steps before the trap slammed open three feet in front of him. Bloody hell, I
never even heard the door break.
There was no time to think or plan or shout for help. Jon dropped his bow, reached back over his
shoulder, ripped Longclaw from its sheath, and buried the blade in the middle of the first head to pop out
of the tower. Bronze was no match for Valyrian steel. The blow sheared right through the Thenn's helm
and deep into his skull, and he went crashing back down where he'd come from. There were more
behind him, Jon knew from the shouting. He fell back and called to Satin. The next man to make the
climb got a quarrel through his cheek. He vanished too. "The oil," Jon said. Satin nodded. Together they
snatched up the thick quilted pads they'd left beside the fire, lifted the heavy kettle of boiling oil, and
dumped it down the hole on the Therms below. The shrieks were as bad as anything he had ever heard,
and Satin looked as though he was going to be sick. Jon kicked the trapdoor shut, set the heavy iron


kettle on top of it, and gave the boy with the pretty face a hard shake. "Retch later," Jon yelled. "Come."
They had only been gone from the parapets for a few moments, but everything below had changed. A
dozen black brothers and a few Mole's Town men still stood atop the crates and barrels, but the
wildlings were swarming over all along the crescent, pushing them back. Jon saw one shove his spear up
through Rast's belly so hard he lifted him into the air. Young Henly was dead and Old Henly was dying,
surrounded by foes. He could see Easy spinning and slashing, laughing like a loon, his cloak
flapping as he leapt from cask to cask. A bronze axe caught him just below the knee and the laughter
turned into a bubbling shriek.
"They're breaking," Satin said.
"No," said Jon, "they're broken."
It happened quickly. One mole fled and then another, and suddenly all the villagers were throwing down
their weapons and abandoning the barricade. The brothers were too few to hold alone. Jon watched
them try and form a line to fall back in order, but the Thenns washed over them with spear and axe, and
then they were fleeing too. Domish Dilly slipped and went down on his face, and a wildling planted a
spear between his shoulder blades. Kegs, slow and short of breath, had almost reached the bottom step
when a Therm caught the end of his cloak and yanked him around ... but a crossbow quarrel dropped
the man before his axe could fall. "Got him," Satin crowed, as Kegs staggered to the stair and began to
crawl up the steps on hands and knees.
The gate is lost. Donal Noye had closed and chained it, but it was there for the taking, the iron bars
glimmering red with reflected firelight, the cold black tunnel behind. No one had fallen back to defend it;
the only safety was on top of the Wall, seven hundred feet up the crooked wooden stairs.
"What gods do you pray to?" Jon asked Satin.
"The Seven," the boy from Oldtown said.
"Pray, then," Jon told him. "Pray to your new gods, and I'll pray to my old ones." It all turned here.
With the confusion at the trapdoor, Jon had forgotten to fill his quiver. He limped back across the roof
and did that now, and picked up his bow as well. The kettle had not moved from where he'd left it, so it
seemed as though they were safe enough for the nonce. The dance has moved on, and we're watching
from the gallery, he thought as he hobbled back. Satin was loosing quarrels at the wildlings on the steps,
then ducking down behind a merlon to cock the crossbow. He may be pretty, but he's quick.
The real battle was on the steps. Noye had put spearmen on the two lowest landings, but the headlong
flight of the villagers had panicked them and they had joined the flight, racing up toward the third landing
with the Therms killing anyone who fell behind. The archers and crossbowmen on the higher landings
were trying to drop shafts over their heads. Jon nocked an arrow, drew, and loosed, and was pleased
when one of the wildlings went rolling down the steps. The heat of the fires was making the Wall weep,
and the flames danced and shimmered against the ice. The steps shook to the footsteps of men running
for their lives.
Again Jon notched and drew and loosed, but there was only one of him
and one of Satin, and a good sixty or seventy Therms pounding up the stairs, killing as they went, drunk


on victory. On the fourth landing, three brothers in black cloaks stood shoulder to shoulder with
longswords in their hands, and battle was joined again, briefly. But there were only three and soon
enough the wildling tide washed over them, and their blood dripped down the steps. "A man is never so
vulnerable in battle as when he flees," Lord Eddard had told Jon once. "A running man is like a wounded
animal to a soldier. It gets his bloodlust up." The archers on the fifth landing fled before the battle even
reached them. It was a rout, a red rout.
"Fetch thf torches," Jon told Satin. There were four of them stacked beside the fire, their heads wrapped
in oily rags. There were a dozen fire arrows too. The Oldtown boy thrust one torch into the fire until it
was blazing brightly, and brought the rest back under his arm, unlit. He looked frightened again, as well
he might. Jon was frightened too.
It was then that he saw Styr. The Magnar was climbing up the barricade, over the gutted corn sacks and
smashed barrels and the bodies of friends and foe alike. His bronze scale armor gleamed darkly in the
firelight. Styr had taken off his helm to survey the scene of his triumph, and the bald earless whoreson
was smiling. In his hand was a long weirwood spear with an ornate bronze head. When he saw the gate,
he pointed the spear at it and barked something in the Old Tongue to the half-dozen Therms around him.
Too late, Jon thought. You should have led your men over the barricade, you might have been able to
save a few
Up above, a warhom sounded, long and low. Not from the top of the Wall, but from the ninth landing,
some two hundred feet up, where Donal Noye was standing.
Jon notched a fire arrow to his bowstring, and Satin lit it from the torch. He stepped to the parapet,
drew, aimed, loosed. Ribbons of flame trailed behind as the shaft sped downward and thudded into its
target, crackling.
Not Styr. The steps. Or more precisely, the casks and kegs and sacks that Donal Noye had piled up
beneath the steps, as high as the first landing; the barrels of lard and lamp oil, the bags of leaves and oily
rags, the split logs, bark, and wood shavings. "Again," said Jon, and, "Again," and, "Again." Other
longbowmen were firing too, from every tower top in range, some sending their arrows up in high arcs to
drop before the Wall. When Jon ran out of fire arrows, he and Satin began to light the torches and fling
them from the crenels.
Up above another fire was blooming. The old wooden steps had drunk up oil like a sponge, and Donal
Noye had drenched them from the ninth landing all the way down to the seventh. Jon could only hope
that most of their own people had staggered up to safety before Noye threw the
torches. The black brothers at least had known the plan, but the villagers had not.
Wind and fire did the rest. All Jon had to do was watch. With flames below and flames above, the
wildlings had nowhere to go. Some continued upward, and died. Some went downward, and died. Some
stayed where they were. They died as well. Many leapt from the steps before they burned, and died from
the fall. Twenty-odd Thenns were still huddled together between the fires when the ice cracked from the
heat, and the whole lower third of the stair broke off, along with several tons of ice. That was the last that
Jon Snow saw of Styr, the Magnar of Thenn. The Wall defends itself, he thought.
Jon asked Satin to help him down to the yard. His wounded leg hurt so badly that he could hardly walk,
even with the crutch. "Bring the torch," he told the boy from Oldtown. "I need to look for someone." It
had been mostly Thenns on the steps. Surely some of the free folk had escaped. Mance's people, not the
Magnar's. She might have been one. So they climbed down past the bodies of the men who'd tried the


trapdoor, and Jon wandered through the dark with his crutch under one arm, and the other around the
shoulders of a boy who'd been a whore in Oldtown.
The stables and the common hall had burned down to smoking cinders by then, but the fire still raged
along the wall, climbing step by step and landing by landing. From time to time they'd hear a groan and
then a craaaack, and another chunk would come crashing off the Wall. The air was full of ash and ice
crystals.
He found Quort dead, and Stone Thumbs dying. He found some dead and dying Therms he had never
truly known. He found Big Boil, weak from all the blood he'd lost but still alive.
He found Ygritte sprawled across a patch of old snow beneath the Lord Commander's Tower, with an
arrow between her breasts. The ice crystals had settled over her face, and in the moonlight it looked as
though she wore a glittering silver mask.
The arrow was black, Jon saw, but it was fletched with white duck feathers. Not mine, he told himself,
not one of mine. But he felt as if it were.
When he knelt in the snow beside her, her eyes opened. "Jon Snow," she said, very softly. It sounded as
though the arrow had found a lung. "Is this a proper castle now? Not just a tower?"
"It is." Jon took her hand.
"Good," she whispered. "I wanted t' see one proper castle, before ... before I . . . "
"You'll see a hundred castles," he promised her. "The battle's done. Maester Aemon will see to you." He
touched her hair. "You're kissed by fire, remember? Lucky. It will take more than an arrow to kill you.
Aemon will draw it out and patch you up, and we'll get you some milk of the poppy for the pain."
She just smiled at that. "D'you remember that cave? We should have stayed in that cave. I told you so."
"We'll go back to the cave," he said. "You're not going to die, Ygritte. You're not."
"Oh." Ygritte cupped his cheek with her hand. "You know nothing, Jon Snow," she sighed, dying.
Chapter 56
BRAN
"It is only another empty castle," Meera Reed said as she gazed across the desolation of rubble, ruins,
and weeds.
No, thought Bran, it is the Nightfort, and this is the end of the world. In the mountains, all he could think
of was reaching the Wall and finding the three-eyed crow, but now that they were here he was filled with
fears. The dream he'd had ... the dream Summer had had ... No, I mustn't think about that dream. He
had not even told the Reeds, though Meera at least seemed to sense that something was wrong. If he


never talked of it maybe he could forget he ever dreamed it, and then it wouldn't have happened and
Robb and Grey Wind would still be ...
"Hodor." Hodor shifted his weight, and Bran with it. He was tired. They had been walking for hours. At
least he's not afraid. Bran was scared of this place, and almost as scared of admitting it to the Reeds. I'm
a prince of the north, a Stark of Winterfell, almost a man grown, I have to be as brave as Robb.
Jojen gazed up at him with his dark green eyes. "There's nothing here to hurt us, Your Grace."
Bran wasn't so certain. The Nightfort had figured in some of Old Nan's scariest stories. It was here that
Night's King had reigned, before his name was wiped from the memory of man. This was where the Rat
Cook had served the Andal king his prince-and-bacon pie, where the seventy-nine sentinels stood their
watch, where brave young Danny Flint had been raped and murdered. This was the castle where King
Sherrit had called down his curse on the Andals of old, where the 'prentice boys had faced the thing that
came in the night, where blind Symeon
Star-Eyes had seen the hellhounds fighting. Mad Axe had once walked these yards and climbed these
towers, butchering his brothers in the dark.
All that had happened hundreds and thousands of years ago, to be sure, and some maybe never
happened at all. Maester Luwin always said that Old Nan's stories shouldn't be swallowed whole. But
once his uncle came to see Father, and Bran asked about the Nightfort. Benjen Stark never said the tales
were true, but he never said they weren't; he only shrugged and said, "We left the Nightfort two hundred
years ago," as if that was an answer.
Bran forced himself to look around. The morning was cold but bright, the sun shining down from a hard
blue sky, but he did not like the noises. The wind made a nervous whistling sound as it shivered through
the broken towers, the keeps groaned and settled, and he could hear rats scrabbling under the floor of
the great hall. The Rat Cook's children running from their father. The yards were small forests where
spindly trees rubbed their bare branches together and dead leaves scuttled like roaches across patches of
old snow. There were trees growing where the stables had been, and a twisted white weirwood pushing
up through the gaping hole in the roof of the domed kitchen. Even Summer was not at ease here. Bran
slipped inside his skin, just for an instant, to get the smell of the place. He did not like that either.
And there was no way through.
Bran had told them there wouldn't be. He had told them and told them, but Jojen Reed had insisted on
seeing for himself. He had had a green dream, he said, and his green dreams did not lie. They don't open
any gates either, thought Bran.
The gate the Nightfort guarded had been sealed since the day the black brothers had loaded up their
mules and garrons and departed for Deep Lake; its iron portcullis lowered, the chains that raised it
carried off, the tunnel packed with stone and rubble all frozen together until they were as impenetrable as
the Wall itself. "We should have followed Jon," Bran said when he saw it. He thought of his bastard
brother often, since the night that Summer had watched him ride off through the storm. "We should have
found the kingsroad and gone to Castle Black."
"We dare not, my prince," Jojen said. "I've told you why."
"But there are wildlings. They killed some man and they wanted to kill Jon too. Jojen, there were a
hundred of them."


"So you said. We are four. You helped your brother, if that was him in truth, but it almost cost you
Summer."
"I know," said Bran miserably. The direwolf had killed three of them, maybe more, but there had been
too many. When they formed a tight ring around the tall earless man, he had tried to slip away through the
rain, but one of their arrows had come flashing after him, and the sudden
stab of pain had driven Bran out of the wolf's skin and back into his own. After the storm finally died,
they had huddled in the dark without a fire, talking in whispers if they talked at all, listening to Hodor's
heavy breathing and wondering if the wildlings might try and cross the lake in the morning. Bran had
reached out for Summer time and time again, but the pain he found drove him back, the way a red-hot
kettle makes you pull your hand back even when you mean to grab it. Only Hodor slept that night,
muttering "Hodor, hodor," as he tossed and turned. Bran was terrified that Summer was off dying in the
darkness. Please, you old gods, he prayed, you took Winterfell, and my father, and my legs, please don't
take Summer too. And watch over Ion Snow too, and make the wildlings go away.
No weirwoods grew on that stony island in the lake, yet somehow the old gods must have heard. The
wildlings took their sweet time about departing the next morning, stripping the bodies of their dead and
the old man they'd killed, even pulling a few fish from the lake, and there was a scary moment when three
of them found the causeway and started to walk out ... but the path turned and they didn't, and two of
them nearly drowned before the others pulled them out. The tall bald man yelled at them, his words
echoing across the water in some tongue that even Jojen did not know, and a little while later they
gathered up their shields and spears and marched off north by east, the same way Jon had gone. Bran
wanted to leave too, to look for Summer, but the Reeds said no. "We will stay another night," said Jojen,
"put some leagues between us and the wildlings. You don't want to meet them again, do you?" Late that
afternoon Summer returned from wherever he'd been hiding, dragging his back leg. He ate parts of the
bodies in the inn, driving off the crows, then swam out to the island. Meera had drawn the broken arrow
from his leg and rubbed the wound with the juice of some plants she found growing around the base of
the tower. The direwolf was still limping, but a little less each day, it seemed to Bran. The gods had
heard.
"Maybe we should try another castle," Meera said to her brother. "Maybe we could get through the gate
somewhere else. I could go scout if you wanted, I'd make better time by myself."
Bran shook his head. "If you go east there's Deep Lake, then Queensgate. West is Icemark. But they'll
be the same, only smaller. All the gates are sealed except the ones at Castle Black, Eastwatch, and the
Shadow Tower."
Hodor said, "Hodor," to that, and the Reeds exchanged a look. "At least I should climb to the top of the
Wall," Meera decided. "Maybe I'll see something up there."
"What could you hope to see?" Jojen asked.
"Something," said Meera, and for once she was adamant.
It should be me. Bran raised his head to look up at the Wall, and imagined himself climbing inch by inch,
squirming his fingers into cracks in the ice and kicking footholds with his toes. That made him smile in
spite of everything, the dreams and the wildlings and Jon and everything. He had climbed the walls of
Winterfell when he was little, and all the towers too, but none of them had been so high, and they were
only stone. The Wall could look like stone, all grey and pitted, but then the clouds would break and the


sun would hit it differently, and all at once it would transform, and stand there white and blue and
glittering. It was the end of the world, Old Nan always said. On the other side were monsters and giants
and ghouls, but they could not pass so long as the Wall stood strong. I want to stand on top with Meera,
Bran thought. I want to stand on top and see.
But he was a broken boy with useless legs, so all he could do was watch from below as Meera went up
in his stead.
She wasn't really climbing, the way he used to climb. She was only walking up some steps that the
Night's Watch had hewn hundreds and thousands of years ago. He remembered Maester Luwin saying
the Nightfort was the only castle where the steps had been cut from the ice of the Wall itself. Or maybe it
had been Uncle Benjen. The newer castles had wooden steps, or stone ones, or long ramps of earth and
gravel. Ice is too treacherous. It was his uncle who'd told him that. He said that the outer surface of the
Wall wept icy tears sometimes, though the core inside stayed frozen hard as rock. The steps must have
melted and refrozen a thousand times since the last black brothers left the castle, and every time they did
they shrunk a little and got smoother and rounder and more treacherous.
And smaller. It's almost like the Wall was swallowing them back into itself. Meera Reed was very
surefooted, but even so she was going slowly, moving from nub to nub. in two places where the steps
were hardly there at all she got down on all fours. It will be worse when she comes down, Bran thought,
watching. Even so, he wished it was him up there. When she reached the top, crawling up the icy knobs
that were all that remained of the highest steps, Meera vanished from his sight.
"When will she come down?" Bran asked Jojen.
"When she is ready. She will want to have a good look ... at the Wall and what's beyond. We should do
the same down here."
"Hodor?" said Hodor, doubtfully.
"We might find something," Jojen insisted.
Or something might find us. Bran couldn't say it, though; he did not want Jojen to think he was craven.
So they went exploring, Jojen Reed leading, Bran in his basket on Hodor's back, Summer padding by
their side. Once the direwolf bolted
through a dark door and returned a moment later with a grey rat between his teeth. The Rat Cook, Bran
thought, but it was the wrong color, and only as big as a cat. The Rat Cook was white, and almost as
huge as a sow ...
There were a lot of dark doors in the Nightfort, and a lot of rats. Bran could hear them scurrying through
the vaults and cellars, and the maze of pitch-black tunnels that connected them. Jojen wanted to go
poking around down there, but Hodor said "Hodor" to that, and Bran said "No." There were worse
things than rats down in the dark beneath the Nightfort.
"This seems an old place," Jojen said as they walked down a gallery where the sunlight fell in dusty shafts
through empty windows.
"Twice as old as Castle Black," Bran said, remembering. "It was the first castle on the Wall, and the
largest." But it had also been the first abandoned, all the way back in the time of the Old King. Even then


it had been three-quarters empty and too costly to maintain. Good Queen Alysanne had suggested that
the Watch replace it with a smaller, newer castle at a spot only seven miles east, where the Wall curved
along the shore of a beautiful green lake. Deep Lake had been paid for by the queen's jewels and built by
the men the Old King had sent north, and the black brothers had abandoned the Nightfort to the rats.
That was two centuries past, though. Now Deep Lake stood as empty as the castle it had replaced, and
the Nightfort ...
"There are ghosts here," Bran said. Hodor had heard all the stories before, but Jojen might not have.
"Old ghosts, from before the Old King, even before Aegon the Dragon, seventy-nine deserters who went
south to be outlaws. One was Lord Ryswell's youngest son, so when they reached the barrowlands they
sought shelter at his castle, but Lord Ryswell took them captive and returned them to the Nightfort. The
Lord Commander had holes hewn in the top of the Wall and he put the deserters in them and sealed
them up alive in the ice. They have spears and horns and they all face north. The seventy-nine sentinels,
they're called. They left their posts in life, so in death their watch goes on forever. Years later, when Lord
Ryswell was old and dying, he had himself carried to the Nightfort so he could take the black and stand
beside his son. He'd sent him back to the Wall for honor's sake, but he loved him still, so he came to
share his watch."
They spent half the day poking through the castle. Some of the towers had fallen down and others
looked unsafe, but they climbed the bell tower (the bells were gone) and the rookery (the birds were
gone). Beneath the brewhouse they found a vault of huge oaken casks that boomed hollowly when
Hodor knocked on them. They found a library (the shelves and bins had collapsed, the books were
gone, and rats were everywhere).
They found a dank and dim-lit dungeon with cells enough to hold five hundred captives, but when Bran
grabbed hold of one of the rusted bars it broke off in his hand. Only one crumbling wall remained of the
great hall, the bathhouse seemed to be sinking into the ground, and a huge thornbush had conquered the
practice yard outside the armory where black brothers had once labored with spear and shield and
sword. The armory and the forge still stood, however, though cobwebs, rats, and dust had taken the
places of blades, bellows, and anvil. Sometimes Summer would hear sounds that Bran seemed deaf to,
or bare his teeth at nothing, the fur on the back of his neck bristling ... but the Rat Cook never put in an
appearance, nor the seventy-nine sentinels, nor Mad Axe. Bran was much relieved. Maybe it is only a
ruined empty castle.
By the time Meera returned, the sun was only a sword's breath above the western hills. "What did you
see?" her brother Jojen asked her.
"I saw the haunted forest," she said in a wistful tone. "Hills rising wild as far as the eye can see, covered
with trees that no axe has ever touched. I saw the sunlight glinting off a lake, and clouds sweeping in from
the west. I saw patches of old snow, and icicles long as pikes. I even saw an eagle circling. I think he
saw me too. I waved at him."
"Did you see a way down?" asked Jojen.
She shook her head. "No. It's a sheer drop, and the ice is so smooth
I might be able to make the descent if I had a good rope and an axe to chop out handholds, but..."
". . . but not us," Jojen finished.


"No," his sister agreed. "Are you sure this is the place you saw in your dream? Maybe we have the
wrong castle."
"No. This is the castle. There is a gate here."
Yes, thought Bran, but it's blocked by stone and ice.
As the sun began to set the shadows of the towers lengthened and the wind blew harder, sending gusts
of dry dead leaves rattling through the yards. The gathering gloom put Bran in mind of another of Old
Nan's stories, the tale of Night's King. He had been the thirteenth man to lead the Night's Watch, she
said; a warrior who knew no fear. "And that was the fault in him," she would add, "for all men must know
fear." A woman was his downfall; a woman glimpsed from atop the Wall, with skin as white as the moon
and eyes like blue stars. Fearing nothing, he chased her and caught her and loved her, though her skin
was cold as ice, and when he gave his seed to her he gave his soul as well.
He brought her back to the Nightfort and proclaimed her a queen and himself her king, and with strange
sorceries he bound his Sworn Brothers to his will. For thirteen years they had ruled, Night's King and his
corpse queen, till finally the Stark of Winterfell and Joramun of the wildlings had joined to free the Watch
from bondage. After his fall, when it was
found he had been sacrificing to the Others, all records of Night's King had been destroyed, his very
name forbidden.
"Some say he was a Bolton," Old Nan would always end. "Some say a Magnar out of Skagos, some
say Umber, Flint, or Norrey. Some would have you think he was a Woodfoot, from them who ruled
Bear island before the ironmen came. He never was. He was a Stark, the brother of the man who
brought him down." She always pinched Bran on the nose then, he would never forget it. "He was a
Stark of Winterfell, and who can say? Mayhaps his name was Brandon. Mayhaps he slept in this very
bed in this very room."
No, Bran thought, but he walked in this castle, where we'll sleep tonight. He did not like that notion very
much at all. Night's King was only a man by light of day, Old Nan would always say, but the night was
his to rule. And it's getting dark.
The Reeds decided that they would sleep in the kitchens, a stone octagon with a broken dome. it looked
to offer better shelter than most of the other buildings, even though a crooked weirwood had burst up
through the slate floor beside the huge central well, stretching slantwise toward the hole in the roof, its
bone-white branches reaching for the sun. It was a queer kind of tree, skinnier than any other weirwood
that Bran had ever seen and faceless as well, but it made him feel as if the old gods were with him here,
at least.
That was the only thing he liked about the kitchens, though. The roof was mostly there, so they'd be dry
if it rained again, but he didn't think they would ever get warm here. You could feel the cold seeping up
through the slate floor. Bran did not like the shadows either, or the huge brick ovens that surrounded
them like open mouths, or the rusted meat hooks, or the scars and stains he saw in the butcher's block
along one wall. That was where the Rat Cook chopped the prince to pieces, he knew, and he baked the
pie in one of these ovens.
The well was the thing he liked the least, though. It was a good twelve feet across, all stone, with steps
built into its side, circling down and down into darkness. The walls were damp and covered with niter,
but none of them could see the water at the bottom, not even Meera with her sharp hunter's eyes.


"Maybe it doesn't have a bottom," Bran said uncertainly.
Hodor peered over the knee-high lip of the well and said, "HODOR!" The word echoed down the well,
"Hodorhodorhodorhodor," fainter and fainter, "hodorhodorhodorhodor," until it was less than a whisper.
Hodor looked startled. Then he laughed, and bent to scoop a broken piece of slate off the floor.
"Hodor, don't!" said Bran, but too late. Hodor tossed the slate over the edge. "You shouldn't have done
that. You don't know what's down
there. You might have hurt something, or ... or woken something up.,,
Hodor looked at him innocently. "Hodor?"
Far, far, far below, they heard the sound as the stone found water. it wasn't a splash, not truly. It was
more a gulp, as if whatever was below had opened a quivering gelid mouth to swallow Hodor's stone.
Faint echoes traveled up the well, and for a moment Bran thought he heard something moving, thrashing
about in the water. "Maybe we shouldn't stay here," he said uneasily.
"By the well?" asked Meera. "Or in the Nightfort?"
"Yes," said Bran.
She laughed, and sent Hodor out to gather wood. Summer went too. It was almost dark by then, and
the direwolf wanted to hunt.
Hodor returned alone with both arms full of deadwood and broken branches. Jojen Reed took his flint
and knife and set about lighting a fire while Meera boned the fish she'd caught at the last stream they'd
crossed. Bran wondered how many years had passed since there had last been a supper cooked in the
kitchens of the Nightfort. He wondered who had cooked it too, though maybe it was better not to know.
When the flames were blazing nicely Meera put the fish on. At least it's not a meat pie. The Rat Cook
had cooked the son of the Andal king in a big pie with onions, carrots, mushrooms, lots of pepper and
salt, a rasher of bacon, and a dark red Domish wine. Then he served him to his father, who praised the
taste and had a second slice. Afterward the gods transformed the cook into a monstrous white rat who
could only cat his own young. He had roamed the Nightfort ever since, devouring his children, but still his
hunger was not sated. "It was not for murder that the gods cursed him," Old Nan said, "nor for serving
the Andal king his son in a pie. A man has a right to vengeance. But he slew a guest beneath his roof, and
that the gods cannot forgive."
"We should sleep," joien said solemnly, after they were full. The fire was burning low. He stirred it with a
stick. "Perhaps I'll have another green dream to show us the way."
Hodor was already curled up and snoring lightly. From time to time he thrashed beneath his cloak, and
whimpered something that might have been "Hodor." Bran wriggled closer to the fire. The warmth felt
good, and the soft crackling of flames soothed him, but sleep would not come. Outside the wind was
sending armies of dead leaves marching across the courtyards to scratch faintly at the doors and
windows. The sounds made him think of Old Nan's stories. He could almost hear the ghostly sentinels
calling to each other atop the Wall and winding their ghostly warhoms. Pale moonlight slanted down
through the hole in the dome, painting the branches of the weirwood as they strained up toward the roof.
It looked as if the tree was trying to catch the moon and drag it down into the well. Old


gods, Bran prayed, if you hear me, don't send a dream tonight. Or if you do, make it a good dream. The
gods made no answer.
Bran made himself close his eyes. Maybe he even slept some, or maybe he was just drowsing, floating
the way you do when you are half awake and half asleep, trying not to think about Mad Axe or the Rat
Cook or the thing that came in the night.
Then he heard the noise.
His eyes opened. What was that? He held his breath. Did I dream it? Was I having a stupid nightmare?
He didn't want to wake Meera and Jojen for a bad dream, but ... there ... a soft scuffling sound, far off ...
Leaves, it's leaves rattling off the walls outside and rustling together ... or the wind, it could be the wind ...
The sound wasn't coming from outside, though. Bran felt the hairs on his arm start to rise. The sound's
inside, it's in here with us, and it's getting louder. He pushed himself up onto an elbow, listening. There
was wind, and blowing leaves as well, but this was something else. Footsteps. Someone was coming this
way. Something was coming this way.
It wasn't the sentinels, he knew. The sentinels never left the Wall. But there might be other ghosts in the
Nightfort, ones even more terrible. He remembered what Old Nan had said of Mad Axe, how he took
his boots off and prowled the castle halls barefoot in the dark, with never a sound to tell you where he
was except for the drops of blood that fell from his axe and his elbows and the end of his wet red beard.
Or maybe it wasn't Mad Axe at all, maybe it was the thing that came in the night. The 'prentice boys all
saw it, Old Nan said, but afterward when they told their Lord Commander every description had been
different. And three died within the year, and the fourth went mad, and a hundred years later when the
thing had come again, the 'prentice boys were seen shambling along behind it, all in chains.
That was only a story, though. He was just scaring himself. There was no thing that comes in the night,
Maester Luwin had said so. if there had ever been such a thing, it was gone from the world now, like
giants and dragons. It's nothing, Bran thought.
But the sounds were louder now.
It's coming from the well, he realized. That made him even more afraid. Something was coming up from
under the ground, coming up out of the dark. Hodor woke it up. He woke it up with that stupid piece of
slate, and now it's coming. it was hard to hear over Hodor's snores and the thumping of his own heart.
Was that the sound blood made dripping from an axe? Or was it the faint, far-off rattling of ghostly
chains? Bran listened harder. Footsteps. it was definitely footsteps, each one a little louder than the one
before. He couldn't tell how many, though. The well made the sounds echo. He didn't hear any dripping,
or chains either, but
there was something else ... a high thin whimpering sound, like someone in pain, and heavy muffled
breathing. But the footsteps were loudest. The footsteps were coming closer.
Bran was too frightened to shout. The fire had burned down to a few faint embers and his friends were
all asleep. He almost slipped his skin and reached out for his wolf, but Summer might be miles away. He
couldn't leave his friends helpless in the dark to face whatever was coming up out of the well. I told them
not to come here, he thought miserably. I told them there were ghosts. I told them that we should go to
Castle Black.
The footfalls sounded heavy to Bran, slow, ponderous, scraping against the stone. It must be huge. Mad
Axe had been a big man in Old Nan's story, and the thing that came in the night had been monstrous.


Back in Winterfell, Sansa had told him that the demons of the dark couldn't touch him if he hid beneath
his blanket. He almost did that now, before he remembered that he was a prince, and almost a man
grown.
Bran wriggled across the floor, dragging his dead legs behind him until he could reach out and touch
Meera on the foot. She woke at once. He had never known anyone to wake as quick as Meera Reed,
or to be so alert so fast. Bran pressed a finger to his mouth so she'd know not to speak. She heard the
sound at once, he could see that on her face; the echoing footfalls, the faint whimpering, the heavy
breathing.
Meera rose to her feet without a word and reclaimed her weapons. With her three-pronged frog spear
in her right hand and the folds of her net dangling from her left, she slipped barefoot toward the well.
Jojen dozed on, oblivious, while Hodor muttered and thrashed in restless sleep. She kept to the shadows
as she moved, stepped around the shaft of moonlight as quiet as a cat. Bran was watching her all the
while, and even he could barely see the faint sheen of her spear. I can't let her fight the thing alone, he
thought. Summer was far away, but...
... he slipped his skin, and reached for Hodor.
it was not like sliding into Summer. That was so easy now that Bran hardly thought about it. This was
harder, like trying to pull a left boot on your right foot. It fit all wrong, and the boot was scared too, the
boot didn't know what was happening, the boot was pushing the foot away. He tasted vomit in the back
of Hodor's throat, and that was almost enough to make him flee. Instead he squirmed and shoved, sat up,
gathered his legs under him - his huge strong legs - and rose. I'm standing. He took a step. I'm walking. It
was such a strange feeling that he almost fell. He could see himself on the cold stone floor, a little broken
thing, but he wasn't broken now. He grabbed Hodor's longsword. The breathing was as loud as a
blacksmith's bellows.
From the well came a wail, a piercing creech that went through him
like a knife. A huge black shape heaved itself up into the darkness and lurched toward the moonlight,
and the fear rose up in Bran so thick that before he could even think of drawing Hodor's sword the way
he'd meant to, he found himself back on the floor again with Hodor roaring "Hodor hodorHODOR," the
wayhe had in the lake tower whenever the lightning flashed. But the thing that came in the night was
screaming too, and thrashing wildly in the folds of Meera's net. Bran saw her spear dart out of the
darkness to snap at it, and the thing staggered and fell, struggling with the net. The wailing was still
coming from the well, even louder now. On the floor the black thing flopped and fought, screeching, "No,
no, don't, please, DON'T..."
Meera stood over him, the moonlight shining silver off the prongs of her frog spear. "Who are you?" she
demanded.
"I'm SAM," the black thing sobbed. "Sam, Sam, I'm Sam, let me out, you stabbed me. . . " He rolled
through the puddle of moonlight, flailing and flopping in the tangles of Meera's net. Hodor was still
shouting, "Hodor hodor hodor."
it was Jojen who fed the sticks to the fire and blew on them until the flames leapt up crackling. Then
there was light, and Bran saw the pale thin-faced girl by the lip of the well, all bundled up in furs and skins
beneath an enormous black cloak, trying to shush the screaming baby in her arms. The thing on the floor
was pushing an arm through the net to reach his knife, but the loops wouldn't let him. He wasn't any
monster beast, or even Mad Axe drenched in gore; only a big fat man dressed up in black wool, black


fur, black leather, and black mail. "He's a black brother," said Bran. "Meera, he's from the Night's
Watch."
"Hodor?" Hodor squatted down on his haunches to peer at the man in the net. "Hodor," he said again,
hooting.
"The Night's Watch, yes." The fat man was still breathing like a bellows. "I'm a brother of the Watch."
He had one cord under his chins, forcing his head up, and others digging deep into his cheeks. "I'm a
crow, please. Let me out of this."
Bran was suddenly uncertain. "Are you the three-eyed crow?" He can't be the three-eyed crow
"I don't think so." The fat man rolled his eyes, but there were only two of them. "I'm only Sam. Samwell
Tarly. Let me out, it's hurting me." He began to struggle again.
Meera made a disgusted sound. "Stop flopping around. If you tear my net I'll throw you back down the
well. just lie still and I'll untangle you."
"Who are you?" Jojen asked the girl with the baby.
"Gilly," she said. "For the gillyflower. He's Sam. We never meant to scare you." She rocked her baby
and murmured at it, and finally it stopped crying.
Meera was untangling the fat brother. Jojen went to the well and peered down. "Where did you come
from?"
"From Craster's," the girl said. "Are you the one?"
Jojen turned to look at her. "The one?"
"He said that Sam wasn't the one," she explained. "There was someone else, he said. The one he was
sent to find."
"Who said?" Bran demanded.
"Coldhands," Gilly answered softly.
Meera peeled back one end of her net, and the fat man managed to sit up. He was shaking, Bran saw,
and still struggling to catch his breath. "He said there would be people," he huffed. "People in the castle. I
didn't know you'd be right at the top of the steps, though. I didn't know you'd throw a net on me or stab
me in the stomach." He touched his belly with a black-gloved hand. "Am I bleeding? I can't see."
"It was just a poke to get you off your feet," said Meera. "Here, let me have a look." She went to one
knee, and felt around his navel. "You're wearing mail. I never got near your skin."
"Well, it hurt all the same," Sam complained.
"Are you really a brother of the Night's Watch?" Bran asked.
The fat man's chins jiggled when he nodded. His skin looked pale and saggy. "Only a steward. I took
care of Lord Mormont's ravens." For a moment he looked like he was going to cry. "I lost them at the


Fist, though. It was my fault. I got us lost too. I couldn't even find the Wall. It's a hundred leagues long
and seven hundred feet high and I couldn't find it!"
"Well, you've found it now," said Meera. "Lift your rump off the ground, I want my net back."
"How did you get through the Wall?" Jojen demanded as Sam struggled to his feet. "Does the well lead
to an underground river, is that where you came from? You're not even wet . . . "
"There's a gate," said fat Sam. "A hidden gate, as old as the Wall itself. The Black Gate, he called it."
The Reeds exchanged a look. "We'll find this gate at the bottom of the well?" asked Jojen.
Sam shook his head. "You won't. I have to take you."
"Why?" Meera demanded. "If there's a gate..."
"You won't find it. If you did it wouldn't open. Not for you. It's the Black Gate." Sam plucked at the
faded black wool of his sleeve. "Only a man of the Night's Watch can open it, he said. A Sworn Brother
who has said his words."
"He said." Jojen frowned. "This ... Coldhands?"
"That wasn't his true name," said Gilly, rocking. "We only called him that, Sam and me. His hands were
cold as ice, but he saved us from the
dead men, him and his ravens, and he brought us here on his elk."
"His elk?" said Bran, wonderstruck.
"His elk?" said Meera, startled.
"His ravens?" said Jojen.
"Hodor?" said Hodor.
"Was he green?" Bran wanted to know. "Did he have antlers?"
The fat man was confused. "The elk?"
"Coldhands," said Bran impatiently. "The green men ride on elks, Old Nan used to say. Sometimes they
have antlers too."
"He wasn't a green man. He wore blacks, like a brother of the Watch, but he was pale as a wight, with
hands so cold that at first I was afraid. The wights have blue eyes, though, and they don't have tongues,
or they've forgotten how to use them." The fat man turned to Jojen. "He'll be waiting. We should go. Do
you have anything warmer to wear? The Black Gate is cold, and the other side of the Wall is even
colder. You - "
"Why didn't he come with you?" Meera gestured toward Gilly and her babe. "They came with you, why
not him? Why didn't you bring him through this Black Gate too?"


"He ... he can't."
"Why not?"
"The Wall. The Wall is more than just ice and stone, he said. There are spells woven into it ... old ones,
and strong. He cannot pass beyond the Wall."
It grew very quiet in the castle kitchen then. Bran could hear the soft crackle of the flames, the wind
stirring the leaves in the night, the creak of the skinny weirwood reaching for the moon. Beyond the gates
the monsters live, and the giants and the ghouls, he remembered Old Nan saying, but they cannot pass so
long as the Wall stands strong. So go to sleep, my little Brandon, my baby boy. You needn't fear. There
are no monsters here.
"I am not the one you were told to bring," Jojen Reed told fat Sam in his stained and baggy blacks. "He
is."
"Oh." Sam looked down at him uncertainly. It might have been just then that he realized Bran was
crippled. "I don't ... I'm not strong enough to carry you, I. . . "
"Hodor can carry me." Bran pointed at his basket. "I ride in that, up on his back."
Sam was staring at him. "You're Jon Snow's brother. The one who fell..."
"No," said Jojen. "That boy is dead."
"Don't tell," Bran warned. "Please."
Sam looked confused for a moment, but finally he said, "I ... I can keep a secret. Gilly too." When he
looked at her, the girl nodded. "Jon
... Jon was my brother too. He was the best friend I ever had, but he went off with Qhorin Halfhand to
scout the Frostfangs and never came back. We were waiting for him on the Fist when ... when..."
"Jon's here," Bran said. "Summer saw him. He was with some wildlings, but they killed a man and Jon
took his horse and escaped. I bet he went to Castle Black."
Sam turned big eyes on Meera. "You're certain it was Jon? You saw him?"
"I'm Meera," Meera said with a smile. "Summer is..."
A shadow detached itself from the broken dome above and leapt down through the moonlight. Even
with his injured leg, the wolf landed as light and quiet as a snowfall. The girl Gilly made a frightened sound
and clutched her babe so hard against her that it began to cry again.
"He won't hurt you," Bran said. "That's Summer."
" Jon said you all had wolves." Sam pulled off a glove. "I know Ghost." He held out a shaky hand, the
fingers white and soft and fat as little sausages. Summer padded closer, sniffed them, and gave the hand a
lick.
That was when Bran made up his mind. "We'll go with you."


"All of you?" Sam seemed surprised by that.
Meera ruffled Bran's hair. "He's our prince."
Summer circled the well, sniffing. He paused by the top step and looked back at Bran. He wants to go.
"Will Gilly be safe if I leave her here till I come back?" Sam asked them.
"She should be," said Meera. "She's welcome to our fire."
Jojen said, "The castle is empty."
Gilly looked around. "Craster used to tell us tales of castles, but I never knew they'd be so big."
It's only the kitchens. Bran wondered what she'd think when she saw Winterfell, if she ever did.
It took them a few minutes to gather their things and hoist Bran into his wicker seat on Hodor's back. By
the time they were ready to go, Gilly sat nursing her babe by the fire. "You'll come back for me," she said
to Sam.
"As soon as I can," he promised, "then we'll go somewhere warm." When he heard that, part of Bran
wondered what he was doing. Will I ever go someplace warm again?
"I'll go first, I know the way." Sam hesitated at the top. "There's just so many steps," he sighed, before
he started down. Jojen followed, then Summer, then Hodor with Bran riding on his back. Meera took the
rear, with her spear and net in hand.
It was a long way down. The top of the well was bathed in moonlight, but it grew smaller and dimmer
every time they went around. Their
footsteps echoed off the damp stones, and the water sounds grew louder. "Should we have brought
torches?" Jojen asked.
"Your eyes will adjust," said Sam. "Keep one hand on the wall and you won't fall."
The well grew darker and colder with every turn. When Bran finally lifted his head around to look back
up the shaft, the top of the well was no bigger than a half-moon. "Hodor, " Hodor whispered,
"Hodorhodorhodorhodorhodorhodor," the well whispered back. The water sounds were close, but when
Bran peered down he saw only blackness.
A turn or two later Sam stopped suddenly. He was a quarter of the way around the well from Bran and
Hodor and six feet farther down, yet Bran could barely see him. He could see the door, though. The
Black Gate, Sam had called it, but it wasn't black at all.
It was white weirwood, and there was a face on it.
A glow came from the wood, like milk and moonlight, so faint it scarcely seemed to touch anything
beyond the door itself, not even Sam standing right before it. The face was old and pale, wrinkled and
shrunken. It looks dead. Its mouth was closed, and its eyes; its cheeks were sunken, its brow withered,
its chin sagging. If a man could live for a thousand years and never die but just grow older, his face might


come to look like that.
The door opened its eyes.
They were white too, and blind. "Who are you?" the door asked, and the well whispered,
"Who-who-who-who-who-whowho."
"I am the sword in the darkness," Samwell Tarly said. "I am the watcher on the walls. I am the fire that
bums against the cold, the light that brings the dawn, the hom that wakes the sleepers. I am the shield that
guards the realms of men."
"Then pass," the door said. its lips opened, wide and wider and wider still, until nothing at all remained
but a great gaping mouth in a ring of wrinkles. Sam stepped aside and waved Jojen through ahead of him.
Summer followed, sniffing as he went, and then it was Bran's turn. Hodor ducked, but not low enough.
The door's upper lip brushed softly against the top of Bran's head, and a drop of water fell on him and
ran slowly down his nose. It was strangely warm, and salty as a tear.
Chapter 57
DAENERYS
Meereen was as large as Astapor and Yunkai combined. Like her sister cities she was built of brick, but
where Astapor had been red and Yunkai yellow, Meereen was made with bricks of many colors. Her
walls were higher than Yunkai's and in better repair, studded with bastions and anchored by great
defensive towers at every angle. Behind them, huge against the sky, could be seen the top of the Great
Pyramid, a monstrous thing eight hundred feet tall with a towering bronze harpy at its top.
"The harpy is a craven thing," Daario Naharis said when he saw it. "She has a woman's heart and a
chicken's legs. Small wonder her sons hide behind their walls."
But the hero did not hide. He rode out the city gates, armored in scales of copper and jet and mounted
upon a white charger whose striped pink-and-white barding matched the silk cloak flowing from the
hero's shoulders. The lance he bore was fourteen feet long, swirled in pink and white, and his hair was
shaped and teased and lacquered into two great curling ram's horns. Back and forth he rode beneath the
walls of multicolored bricks, challenging the besiegers to send a champion forth to meet him in single
combat.
Her bloodriders were in such a fever to go meet him that they almost came to blows. "Blood of my
blood," Dany told them, "your place is here by me. This man is a buzzing fly, no more. Ignore him, he will
soon be gone." Aggo, Jhogo, and Rakharo were brave warriors, but they were young, and too valuable
to risk. They kept her khalasar together, and were her best scouts too.
"That was wisely done," Ser Jorah said as they watched from the front of her pavilion. "Let the fool ride
back and forth and shout until his horse goes lame. He does us no harm."
"He does," Arstan Whitebeard insisted. "Wars are not won with swords and spears alone, ser. Two
hosts of equal strength may come together, but one will break and run whilst the other stands. This hero


builds courage in the hearts of his own men and plants the seeds of doubt in ours."
Ser Jorah snorted. "And if our champion were to lose, what sort of seed would that plant?"
"A man who fears battle wins no victories, ser."
"We're not speaking of battle. Meereen's gates will not open if that fool falls. Why risk a life for naught?"
"For honor, I would say."
"I have heard enough." Dany did not need their squabbling on top of all the other troubles that plagued
her. Meereen posed dangers far more serious than one pink-and-white hero shouting insults, and she
could not let herself be distracted. Her host numbered more than eighty thousand after Yunkai, but fewer
than a quarter of them were soldiers. The rest ... well, Ser Jorah called them mouths with feet, and soon
they would be starving.
The Great Masters of Meereen had withdrawn before Dany's advance, harvesting all they could and
burning what they could not harvest. Scorched fields and poisoned wells had greeted her at every hand.
Worst of all, they had nailed a slave child up on every milepost along the coast road from Yunkai, nailed
them up still living with their entrails hanging out and one arm always outstretched to point the way to
Meereen. Leading her van, Daario had given orders for the children to be taken down before Dany had
to see them, but she had countermanded him as soon as she was told. "I will see them," she said. "I will
see every one, and count them, and look upon their faces. And I will remember."
By the time they came to Meereen sitting on the salt coast beside her river, the count stood at one
hundred and sixty-three. I will have this city, Dany pledged to herself once more.
The pink-and-white hero taunted the besiegers for an hour, mocking their manhood, mothers, wives, and
gods. Meereen's defenders cheered him on from the city walls. "His name is Oznak zo Pahl," Brown Ben
Plumm told her when he arrived for the war council. He was the new commander of the Second Sons,
chosen by a vote of his fellow sellswords. "I was bodyguard to his uncle once, before I joined the
Second Sons. The Great Masters, what a ripe lot o' maggots. The women weren't so bad, though it was
worth your life to look at the wrong one the wrong way. I knew a man, Scarb, this Oznak cut his liver
out. Claimed to be defending
I
a lady's honor, he did, said Scarb had raped her with his eyes. How do you rape a wench with eyes, I
ask you? But his uncle is the richest man in Meereen and his father commands the city guard, so I had to
run like a rat before he killed me too."
They watched Oznak zo Pahl dismount his white charger, undo his robes, pull out his manhood, and
direct a stream of urine in the general direction of the olive grove where Dany's gold pavilion stood
among the burnt trees. He was still pissing when Daario Naharis rode up, alakh in hand. "Shall I cut that
off for you and stuff it down his mouth, Your Grace?" His tooth shone gold amidst the blue of his forked
beard.
"It's his city I want, not his meager manhood." She was growing angry, however. If I ignore this any
longer, my own people will think me weak. Yet who could she send? She needed Daario as much as she
did her bloodriders. Without the flamboyant Tyroshi, she had no hold on the Stormcrows, many of whom
had been followers of Prendahl na Ghezn and Sallor the Bald.


High on the walls of Meereen, the jeers had grown louder, and now hundreds of the defenders were
taking their lead from the hero and pissing down through the ramparts to show their contempt for the
besiegers. They are pissing on slaves, to show how little they fear us, she thought. They would never dare
such a thing if it were a Dothraki khalasar outside their gates.
"This challenge must be met," Arstan said again.
"It will be." Dany said, as the hero tucked his penis away again. "Tell Strong Belwas I have need of him."
They found the huge brown eunuch sitting in the shade of her pavilion, eating a sausage. He finished it in
three bites, wiped his greasy hands clean on his trousers, and sent Arstan Whitebeard to fetch him his
steel. The aged squire honed Belwas's arakh every evening and rubbed it down with bright red oil.
When Whitebeard brought the sword, Strong Belwas squinted down the edge, grunted, slid the blade
back into its leather sheath, and tied the swordbelt about his vast waist. Arstan had brought his shield as
well: a round steel disk no larger than a pie plate, which the eunuch grasped with his off hand rather than
strapping to his forearm in the manner of Westeros. "Find liver and onions, Whitebeard," Belwas said.
"Not for now, for after. Killing makes Strong Belwas hungry." He did not wait for a reply, but lumbered
from the olive grove toward Oznak zo Pahl.
"Why that one, Khaleesi?" Rakharo demanded of her. "He is fat and stupid."
"Strong Belwas was a slave here in the fighting pits. If this highborn Oznak should fall to such the Great
Masters will be shamed, while if he wins ... well, it is a poor victory for one so noble, one that Meereen
can
take no pride in." And unlike Ser Jorah, Daario, Brown Ben, and her three bloodriders, the eunuch did
not lead troops, plan battles, or give her counsel. He does nothing but eat and boast and bellow at
Arstan. Belwas was the man she could most easily spare. And it was time she learned what sort of
protector Magister Illyrio had sent her.
A thrum of excitement went through the siege lines when Belwas was seen plodding toward the city, and
from the walls and towers of Meereen came shouts and jeers. Oznak zo Pahl mounted up again, and
waited, his striped lance held upright. The charger tossed his head impatiently and pawed the sandy
earth. As massive as he was, the eunuch looked small beside the hero on his horse.
"A chivalrous man would dismount," said Arstan.
Oznak zo Pahl lowered his lance and charged.
Belwas stopped with legs spread wide. In one hand was his small round shield, in the other the curved
arakh that Arstan tended with such care. His great brown stomach and sagging chest were bare above
the yellow silk sash knotted about his waist, and he wore no armor but his studded leather vest, so
absurdly small that it did not even cover his nipples. "We should have given him chainmail," Dany said,
suddenly anxious.
"Mail would only slow him," said Ser Jorah. "They wear no armor in the fighting pits. It's blood the
crowds come to see."
Dust flew from the hooves of the white charger. Oznak thundered toward Strong Belwas, his striped


cloak streaming from his shoulders. The whole city of Meereen seemed to be screaming him on. The
besiegers' cheers seemed few and thin by comparison; her Unsullied stood in silent ranks, watching with
stone faces. Belwas might have been made of stone as well. He stood in the horse's path, his vest
stretched tight across his broad back. Oznak's lance was leveled at the center of his chest. its bright steel
point winked in the sunlight. He's going to be impaled, she thought ... as the eunuch spun sideways. And
quick as the blink of an eye the horseman was beyond him, wheeling, raising the lance. Belwas made no
move to strike at him. The Meereenese on the walls screamed even louder. "What is he doing?" Dany
demanded.
"Giving the mob a show," Ser Jorah said.
Oznak brought the horse around Belwas in a wide circle, then dug in with his spurs and charged again.
Again Belwas waited, then spun and knocked the point of the lance aside. She could hear the eunuch's
booming laughter echoing across the plain as the hero went past him. "The lance is too long," Ser Jorah
said. "All Belwas needs do is avoid the point. Instead of trying to spit him so prettily, the fool should ride
right over him."
Oznak zo Pahl charged a third time, and now Dany could see plainly that he was riding past Belwas, the
way a Westerosi knight might ride
at an opponent in a tilt, rather than at him, like a Dothraki riding down a foe. The flat level ground
allowed the charger to get up a good speed, but it also made it easy for the eunuch to dodge the
cumbersome fourteen-foot lance.
Meereen's pink-and-white hero tried to anticipate this time, and swung his lance sideways at the last
second to catch Strong Belwas when he dodged. But the eunuch had anticipated too, and this time he
dropped down instead of spinning sideways. The lance passed harmlessly over his head. And suddenly
Belwas was rolling, and bringing the razor-sharp arakh around in a silver arc. They heard the charger
scream as the blade bit into his legs, and then the horse was falling, the hero tumbling from the saddle.
A sudden silence swept along the brick parapets of Meereen. Now it was Dany's people who were
screaming and cheering.
Oznak leapt clear of his horse and managed to draw his sword before Strong Belwas was on him. Steel
sang against steel, too fast and furious for Dany to follow the blows. It could not have been a dozen
heartbeats before Belwas's chest was awash in blood from a slice below his breasts, and Oznak zo Pahl
had an arakh planted right between his ram's horns. The eunuch wrenched the blade loose and parted the
hero's head from his body with three savage blows to the neck. He held it up high for the Meereenese to
see, then flung it toward the city gates and let it bounce and roll across the sand.
"So much for the hero of Meereen," said Daario, laughing.
"A victory without meaning," Ser Jorah cautioned. "We will not win Meereen by killing its defenders one
at a time."
"No," Dany agreed, "but I'm pleased we killed this one."
The defenders on the walls began firing their crossbows at Belwas, but the bolts fell short or skittered
harmlessly along the ground. The eunuch turned his back on the steel-tipped rain, lowered his trousers,
squatted, and shat in the direction of the city. He wiped himself with Oznak's striped cloak, and paused
long enough to loot the hero's corpse and put the dying horse out of his agony before trudging back to


the olive grove.
The besiegers gave him a raucous welcome as soon as he reached the camp. Her Dothraki hooted and
screamed, and the Unsullied sent up a great clangor by banging their spears against their shields. "Well
done," Ser Jorah told him, and Brown Ben tossed the eunuch a ripe plum and said, "A sweet fruit for a
sweet fight." Even her Dothraki handmaids had words of praise. "We would braid your hair and hang a
bell in it, Strong Belwas," said Jhiqui, "but you have no hair to braid."
"Strong Belwas needs no tinkly bells." The eunuch ate Brown Ben's plum in four big bites and tossed
aside the stone. "Strong Belwas needs liver and onions."
"You shall have it," said Dany. "Strong Belwas is hurt." His stomach was red with the blood sheeting
down from the meaty gash beneath his breasts.
"It is nothing. I let each man cut me once, before I kill him." He slapped his bloody belly. "Count the cuts
and you will know how many Strong Belwas has slain."
But Dany had lost Khal Drogo to a similar wound, and she was not willing to let it go untreated. She sent
Missandei to find a certain Yunkish freedman renowned for his skill in the healing arts. Belwas howled
and complained, but Dany scolded him and called him a big bald baby until he let the healer stanch the
wound 'with vinegar, sew it shut, and bind his chest with strips of linen soaked in fire wine. Only then did
she lead her captains and commanders inside her pavilion for their council.
"I must have this city," she told them, sitting crosslegged on a pile of cushions, her dragons all about her.
Irri and Jhiqui poured wine. "Her granaries are full to bursting. There are flgs and dates and olives
growing on the terraces of her pyramids, and casks of salt fish and smoked meat buried in her cellars."
"And fat chests of gold, silver, and gemstones as well," Daario reminded them. "Let us not forget the
gemstones."
"I've had a look at the landward walls, and I see no point of weakness," said Ser Jorah Mormont.
"Given time, we might be able to mine beneath a tower and make a breach, but what do we eat while
we're digging? Our stores are all but exhausted."
"No weakness in the landward walls?" said Dany. Meereen stood on a jut of sand and stone where the
slow brown Skahazadhan flowed into Slaver's Bay. The city's north wall ran along the riverbank, its west
along the bay shore. "Does that mean we might attack from the river or the sea? "
"With three ships? We'll want to have Captain Groleo take a good look at the wall along the river, but
unless it's crumbling that's just a wetter way to die."
"What if we were to build siege towers? My brother Viserys told tales of such, I know they can be
made."
"From wood, Your Grace," Ser Jorah said. "The slavers have burnt every tree within twenty leagues of
here. Without wood, we have no trebuchets to smash the walls, no ladders to go over them, no siege
towers, no turtles, and no rams. We can storm the gates with axes, to be sure, but . . . "
"Did you see them bronze heads above the gates?" asked Brown Ben Plumm. "Rows of harpy heads
with open mouths? The Meereenese can squirt boiling oil out them mouths, and cook your axemen where
they stand."


Daario Naharis gave Grey Worm a smile. "Perhaps the Unsullied should wield the axes. Boiling oil feels
like no more than a warm bath to you, I have heard."
"This is false." Grey Worm did not return the smile. "These ones do not feel burns as men do, yet such
oil blinds and kills. The Unsullied do not fear to die, though. Give these ones rams, and we will batter
down these gates or die in the attempt."
"You would die," said Brown Ben. At Yunkai, when he took command of the Second Sons, he claimed
to be the veteran of a hundred battles. "Though I will not say I fought bravely in all of them. There are old
sellswords and bold sellswords, but no old bold sellswords." She saw that it was true.
Dany sighed. "I will not throw away Unsullied lives, Grey Worm. Perhaps we can starve the city out."
Ser Jorah looked unhappy. "We'll starve long before they do, Your Grace. There's no food here, nor
fodder for our mules and horses. I do not like this river water either. Meereen shits into the Skahazadhan
but draws its drinking water from deep wells. Already we've had reports of sickness in the camps, fever
and brownleg and three cases of the bloody flux. There will be more if we remain. The slaves are weak
from the march."
"Freedmen," Dany corrected. "They are slaves no longer."
"Slave or free, they are hungry and they'll soon be sick. The city is better provisioned than we are, and
can be resupplied by water. Your three ships are not enough to deny them access to both the river and
the sea."
"Then what do you advise, Ser Jorah?"
"You will not like it."
"I would hear it all the same."
"As you wish. I say, let this city be. You cannot free every slave in the world, Khaleesi. Your war is in
Westeros."
"I have not forgotten Westeros." Dany dreamt of it some nights, this fabled land that she had never seen.
"If I let Meereen's old brick walls defeat me so easily, though, how will I ever take the great stone castles
of Westeros?"
"As Aegon did," Ser Jorah said, "with fire. By the time we reach the Seven Kingdoms, your dragons will
be grown. And we will have siege towers and trebuchets as well, all the things we lack here ... but the
way across the Lands of the Long Summer is long and grueling, and there are dangers we cannot know.
You stopped at Astapor to buy an army, not to start a war. Save your spears and swords for the Seven
Kingdoms, my queen. Leave Meereen to the Meereenese and march west for Pentos."
"Defeated?" said Dany, bristling.
"When cowards hide behind great walls, it is they who are defeated, Khaleesi," Ko Jhogo said.
Her other bloodriders concurred. "Blood of my blood," said Rakharo, "when cowards hide and burn the
food and fodder, great khals must seek for braver foes. This is known."


"It is known," Jhiqui agreed, as she poured.
"Not to me." Dany set great store by Ser Jorah's counsel, but to leave Meereen untouched was more
than she could stomach. She could not forget the children on their posts, the birds tearing at their entrails,
their skinny arms pointing up the coast road. "Ser Jorah, you say we have no food left. If I march west,
how can I feed my freedmen?"
"You can't. I am sorry, Khaleesi. They must feed themselves or starve. Many and more will die along the
march, yes. That will be hard, but there is no way to save them. We need to put this scorched earth well
behind us."
Dany had left a trail of corpses behind her when she crossed the red waste. It was a sight she never
meant to see again. "No," she said. "I will not march my people off to die." My children. "There must be
some way into this city."
"I know a way." Brown Ben Plumm stroked his speckled grey-andwhite beard. "Sewers."
"Sewers? What do you mean?"
"Great brick sewers empty into the Skahazadhan, carrying the city's wastes. They might be a way in, for
a few. That was how I escaped Meereen, after Scarb lost his head." Brown Ben made a face. "The smell
has never left me. I dream of it some nights."
Ser Jorah looked dubious. "Easier to go out than in, it would seem to me. These sewers empty into the
river, you say? That would mean the mouths are right below the walls."
"And closed with iron grates," Brown Ben admitted, "though some have rusted through, else I would
have drowned in shit. Once inside, it is a long foul climb in pitch-dark through a maze of brick where a
man could lose himself forever. The filth is never lower than waist high, and can rise over your head from
the stains I saw on the walls. There's things down there too. Biggest rats you ever saw, and worse things.
Nasty."
Daario Naharis laughed. "As nasty as you, when you came crawling out? If any man were fool enough to
try this, every slaver in Meereen would smell them the moment they emerged."
Brown Ben shrugged. "Her Grace asked if there was a way in, so I told her ... but Ben Plumm isn't going
down in them sewers again, not for all the gold in the Seven Kingdoms. If there's others want to try it,
though, they're welcome."
Aggo, Jhogo, and Grey Worm all tried to speak at once, but Dany raised
her hand for silence. "These sewers do not sound promising." Grey Worm would lead his Unsullied
down the sewers if she commanded it, she knew; her bloodriders would do no less. But none of them
was suited to the task. The Dothraki were horsemen, and the strength of the Unsullied was their discipline
on the battlefield. Can I send men to die in the dark on such a slender hope? "I must think on this some
more. Return to your duties."
Her captains bowed and left her with her handmaids and her dragons. But as Brown Ben was leaving,
Viserion spread his pale white wings and flapped lazily at his head. One of the wings buffeted the
sellsword in his face. The white dragon landed awkwardly with one foot on the man's head and one on


his shoulder, shrieked, and flew off again. "He likes you, Ben " said Dany.
"And well he might." Brown Ben laughed. "I have me a drop of the dragon blood myself, you know."
"You?" Dany was startled. Plumm was a creature of the free companies, an amiable mongrel. He had a
broad brown face with a broken nose and a head of nappy grey hair, and his Dothraki mother had
bequeathed him large, dark, almond-shaped eyes. He claimed to be part Braavosi, part Summer
Islander, part Ibbenese, part Qohorik, part Dothraki, part Dornish, and part Westerosi, but this was the
first she had heard of Targaryen blood. She gave him a searching look and said, "How could that be?"
"Well," said Brown Ben, "there was some old Plumm in the Sunset Kingdoms who wed a dragon
princess. My grandmarna told me the tale. He lived in King Aegon's day."
"Which King Aegon?" Dany asked. "Five Aegons have ruled in Westeros." Her brother's son would
have been the sixth, but the Usurper's men had dashed his head against a wall.
"Five, were there? Well, that's a confusion. I could not give you a number, my queen. This old Plumm
was a lord, though, must have been a famous fellow in his day, the talk of all the land. The thing was,
begging your royal pardon, he had himself a cock six foot long."
The three bells in Dany's braid tinkled when she laughed. "You mean inches, I think."
"Feet," Brown Ben said firmly. "If it was inches, who'd want to talk about it, now? Your Grace."
Dany giggled like a little girl. "Did your grandmother claim she'd actually seen this prodigy?"
"That the old crone never did. She was half-Ibbenese and half-Qohorik, never been to Westeros, my
grandfather must have told her. Some Dothraki killed him before I was born."
"And where did your grandfather's knowledge come from?"
"One of them tales told at the teat, I'd guess." Brown Ben shrugged. "That's all I know about Aegon the
Unnumbered or old Lord Plumm's mighty manhood, I fear. I best see to my Sons."
"Go do that," Dany told him.
When Brown Ben left, she lay back on her cushions. "If you were grown," she told Drogon, scratching
him between the horns, "I'd fly you over the walls and melt that harpy down to slag." But it would be
years before her dragons were large enough to ride. And when they are, who shall ride them? The
dragon has three heads, but I have only one. She thought of Daario. If ever there was a man who could
rape a woman with his eyes ...
To be sure, she was just as guilty. Dany found herself stealing looks at the Tyroshi when her captains
came to council, and sometimes at night she remembered the way his gold tooth glittered when he smiled.
That, and his eyes. His bright blue eyes. On the road from Yunkai, Daario had brought her a flower or a
sprig of some plant every evening when he made his report ... to help her learn the land, he said.
Waspwillow, dusky roses, wild mint, lady's lace, daggerleaf, broom, prickly ben, harpy's gold ... He tried
to spare me the sight of the dead children too. He should not have done that, but he meant it kindly. And
Daario Naharis made her laugh, which Ser Jorah never did.
Dany tried to imagine what it would be like if she allowed Daario to kiss her, the way Jorah had kissed


her on the ship. The thought was exciting and disturbing, both at once. It is too great a risk. The Tyroshi
sellsword was not a good man, no one needed to tell her that. Under the smiles and the jests he was
dangerous, even cruel. Sallor and Prendahl had woken one morning as his partners; that very night he'd
given her their heads. Khal Drogo could be cruel as well, and there was never a man more dangerous.
She had come to love him all the same. Could I love Daario? What would it mean, if I took him into my
bed? Would that make him one of the heads of the dragon? Ser Jorah would be angry, she knew, but he
was the one who'd said she had to take two husbands. Perhaps I should marry them both and be done
with it.
But these were foolish thoughts. She had a city to take, and dreaming of kisses and some sellsword's
bright blue eyes would not help her breach the walls of Meereen. I am the blood of the dragon, Dany
reminded herself. Her thoughts were spinning in circles, like a rat chasing its tail. Suddenly she could not
stand the close confines of the pavilion another moment. I want to feel the wind on my face, and smell the
sea. "Missandei," she called, "have my silver saddled. Your own mount as well."
The little scribe bowed. "As Your Grace commands. Shall I summon your bloodriders to guard you?"
"We'll take Arstan. I do not mean to leave the camps." She had no
enemies among her children. And the old squire would not talk too much as Belwas would, or look at
her like Daario.
The grove of burnt olive trees in which she'd raised her pavilion stood beside the sea, between the
Dothraki camp and that of the Unsullied. When the horses had been saddled, Dany and her companions
set out along the shoreline, away from the city. Even so, she could feel Meereen at her back, mocking
her. When she looked over one shoulder, there it stood, the afternoon sun blazing off the bronze harpy
atop the Great Pyramid. Inside Meereen the slavers would soon be reclining in their fringed tokars to
feast on lamb and olives, unborn puppies, honeyed dormice and other such delicacies, whilst outside her
children went hungry. A sudden wild anger filled her. I will bring you down, she swore.
As they rode past the stakes and pits that surrounded the eunuch encampment, Dany could hear Grey
Worm and his sergeants running one company through a series of drills with shield, shortsword, and
heavy spear. Another company was bathing in the sea, clad only in white linen breechclouts. The eunuchs
were very clean, she had noticed. Some of her sellswords smelled as if they had not washed or changed
their clothes since her father lost the Iron Throne, but the Unsullied bathed each evening, even if they'd
marched all day. When no water was available they cleansed themselves with sand, the Dothraki way.
The eunuchs knelt as she passed, raising clenched fists to their breasts. Dany returned the salute. The
tide was coming in, and the surf foamed about the feet of her silver. She could see her ships standing out
to sea. Balerion floated nearest; the great cog once known as Saduleon, her sails furled. Further out were
the galleys Meraxes and Vhagar, formerly joso's Prank and Summer Sun. They were Magister Illyrio's
ships, in truth, not hers at all, and yet she had given them new names with hardly a thought. Dragon
names, and more; in old Valyria before the Doom, Balerion, Men axes, and Vhagar had been gods.
South of the ordered realm of stakes, pits, drills, and bathing eunuchs lay the encampments of her
freedmen, a far noisier and more chaotic place. Dany had armed the former slaves as best she could with
weapons from Astapor and Yunkai, and Ser Jorah had organized the fighting men into four strong
companies, yet she saw no one drilling here. They passed a driftwood fire where a hundred people had
gathered to roast the carcass of a horse. She could smell the meat and hear the fat sizzling as the spit
boys turned, but the sight only made her frown.


Children ran behind their horses, skipping and laughing. Instead of salutes, voices called to her on every
side in a babble of tongues. Some of the freedmen greeted her as "Mother," while others begged for
boons or favors. Some prayed for strange gods to bless her, and some asked her
to bless them instead. She smiled at them, turning right and left, touching their hands when they raised
them, letting those who knelt reach up to touch her stirrup or her leg. Many of the freedmen believed
there was good fortune in her touch. ff it helps give them courage, let them touch me, she thought. There
are hard trials yet ahead ...
Dany had stopped to speak to a pregnant woman who wanted the Mother of Dragons to name her baby
when someone reached up and grabbed her left wrist. Turning, she glimpsed a tall ragged man with a
shaved head and a sunburnt face. "Not so hard," she started to say, but before she could finish he'd
yanked her bodily from the saddle. The ground came up and knocked the breath from her, as her silver
whinnied and backed away. Stunned, Dany rolled to her side and pushed herself onto one elbow ...
... and then she saw the sword.
"There's the treacherous sow," he said. "I knew you'd come to get your feet kissed one day." His head
was bald as a melon, his nose red and peeling, but she knew that voice and those pale green eyes. "I'm
going to start by cutting off your teats." Dany was dimly aware of Missandei shouting for help. A
freedman edged forward, but only a step. One quick slash, and he was on his knees, blood running down
his face. Mero wiped his sword on his breeches. "Who's next?"
"I am." Arstan Whitebeard leapt from his horse and stood over her, the salt wind riffling through his
snowy hair, both hands on his tall hardwood staff.
"Grandfather," Mero said, "run off before I break your stick in two and bugger you with - "
The old man feinted with one end of the staff, pulled it back, and whipped the other end about faster
than Dany would have believed. The Titan's Bastard staggered back into the surf, spitting blood and
broken teeth from the ruin of his mouth. Whitebeard put Dany behind him. Mero slashed at his face. The
old man jerked back, cat-quick. The staff thumped Mero's ribs, sending him reeling. Arstan splashed
sideways, parried a looping cut, danced away from a second, checked a third mid-swing. The moves
were so fast she could hardly follow. Missandei was pulling Dany to her feet when she heard a crack.
She thought Arstan's staff had snapped until she saw the jagged bone jutting from Mero's calf. As he fell,
the Titan's Bastard twisted and lunged, sending his point straight at the old man's chest. Whitebeard
swept the blade aside almost contemptuously and smashed the other end of his staff against the big man's
temple. Mero went sprawling, blood bubbling from his mouth as the waves washed over him. A moment
later the freedmen washed over him too, knives and stones and angry fists rising and falling in a frenzy.
Dany turned away, sickened. She was more frightened now than when it had been happening. He would
have killed me.
"Your Grace." Arstan knelt. "I am an old man, and shamed. He should never have gotten close enough
to seize you. I was lax. I did not know him without his beard and hair."
"No more than I did." Dany took a deep breath to stop her shaking. Enemies everywhere. "Take me
back to my tent. Please."
By the time Mormont arrived, she was huddled in her lion pelt, drinking a cup of spice wine. "I had a
look at the river wall," Ser Jorah started. "It's a few feet higher than the others, and just as strong. And


the Meereenese have a dozen fire hulks tied up beneath the ramparts - "
She cut him off. "You might have warned me that the Titan's Bastard had escaped."
He frowned. "I saw no need to frighten you, Your Grace. I have offered a reward for his head - "
"Pay it to Whitebeard. Mero has been with us all the way from Yunkai. He shaved his beard off and lost
himself amongst the freedmen, waiting for a chance for vengeance. Arstan killed him."
Ser Jorah gave the old man a long look. "A squire with a stick slew Mero of Braavos, is that the way of
it?"
"A stick," Dany confirmed, "but no longer a squire. Ser Jorah, it's my wish that Arstan be knighted."
"No."
The loud refusal was surprise enough. Stranger still, it came from both men at once.
Ser Jorah drew his sword. "The Titan's Bastard was a nasty piece of work. And good at killing. Who
are you, old man?"
"A better knight than you, ser," Arstan said coldly.
Knight? Dany was confused. "You said you were a squire."
"I was, Your Grace." He dropped to one knee. "I squired for Lord Swann in my youth, and at Magister
Illyrio's behest I have served Strong Belwas as well. But during the years between, I was a knight in
Westeros. I have told you no lies, my queen. Yet there are truths I have withheld, and for that and all my
other sins I can only beg your forgiveness."
"What truths have you withheld?" Dany did not like this. "You will tell me. Now."
He bowed his head. "At Qarth, when you asked my name, I said I was called Arstan. That much was
true. Many men had called me by that name while Belwas and I were making our way east to find you.
But it is not my true name."
She was more confused than angry. He has played me false, just as Jorah warned me, yet he saved my
life just now
Ser Jorah flushed red. "Mero shaved his beard, but you grew one, didn't you? No wonder you looked
so bloody familiar. . . "
"You know him?" Dany asked the exile knight, lost.
"I saw him perhaps a dozen times ... from afar most often, standing with his brothers or riding in some
tourney. But every man in the Seven Kingdoms knew Barristan the Bold." He laid the point of his sword
against the old man's neck. "Khaleesi, before you kneels Ser Barristan Selmy, Lord Commander of the
Kingsguard, who betrayed your House to serve the Usurper Robert Baratheon."
The old knight did not so much as blink. "The crow calls the raven black, and you speak of betrayal."


"Why are you here?" Dany demanded of him. "If Robert sent you to kill me, why did you save my life?"
He served the Usurper. He betrayed Rhaegar's memory, and abandoned Viserys to live and die in exile.
Yet if he wanted me dead, he need only have stood aside . . . "I want the whole truth now, on your honor
as a knight. Are you the Usurper's man, or mine?"
"Yours, if you will have me." Ser Barristan had tears in his eyes. "I took Robert's pardon, aye. I served
him in Kingsguard and council. Served with the Kingslayer and others near as bad, who soiled the white
cloak I wore. Nothing will excuse that. I might be serving in King's Landing still if the vile boy upon the
Iron Throne had not cast me aside, it shames me to admit. But when he took the cloak that the White
Bull had draped about my shoulders, and sent men to kill me that selfsame day, it was as though he'd
ripped a caul off my eyes. That was when I knew I must find my true king, and die in his service - "
"I can grant that wish," Ser Jorah said darkly.
"Quiet," said Dany. "I'll hear him out."
"It may be that I must die a traitor's death," Ser Barristan said. "If so, I should not die alone. Before I
took Robert's pardon I fought against him on the Trident. You were on the other side of that battle,
Mormont, were you not?" He did not wait for an answer. "Your Grace, I am sorry I misled you. it was
the only way to keep the Lannisters from learning that I had joined you. You are watched, as your
brother was. Lord Varys reported every move Viserys made, for years. Whilst I sat on the small council,
I heard a hundred such reports. And since the day you wed Khal Drogo, there has been an informer by
your side selling your secrets, trading whispers to the Spider for gold and promises."
He cannot mean... "You are mistaken." Dany looked at Jorah Mon mont. "Tell him he's mistaken.
There's no informer. Ser Jorah, tell him. We crossed the Dothraki sea together, and the red waste. . ."
Her heart fluttered like a bird in a trap. "Tell him, Jorah. Tell him how he got it wrong."
"The Others take you, Selmy." Ser Jorah flung his longsword to the carpet. "Khaleesi, it was only at the
start, before I came to know you ... before I came to love. . . "
"Do not say that word!" She backed away from him. "How could you? What did the Usurper promise
you? Gold, was it gold?" The Undying had said she would be betrayed twice more, once for gold and
once for love. "Tell me what you were promised?"
"Varys said ... I might go home." He bowed his head.
I was going to take you home! Her dragons sensed her fury. Viserion roared, and smoke rose grey from
his snout. Drogon beat the air with black wings, and Rhaegal twisted his head back and belched flame. I
should say the word and bum the two of them. Was there no one she could trust, no one to keep her
safe? "Are all the knights of Westeros so false as you two? Get out, before my dragons roast you both.
What does roast liar smell like? As foul as Brown Ben's sewers? Go!"
Ser Barristan rose stiff and slow. For the first time, he looked his age. "Where shall we go, Your
Grace?"
"To hell, to serve King Robert." Dany felt hot tears on her cheeks. Drogon screamed, lashing his tail
back and forth. "The Others can have you both." Go, go away forever, both of you, the next time I see
your faces I'll have your traitors' heads off. She could not say the words, though. They betrayed me. But
they saved me. But they lied. "You go..." My bear, myfierce strong bear, what will I do without him? And
the old man, my brother's friend. "You go ... go..." Where?


And then she knew.
Chapter 58
Tyrion
Tyrion dressed himself in darkness, listening to his wife's soft breathing from the bed they shared. She
dreams, he thought, when Sansa murmured something softly - a name, perhaps, though it was too faint to
say - and turned onto her side. As man and wife they shared a marriage bed, but that was all. Even her
tears she hoards to herself.
He had expected anguish and anger when he told her of her brother's death, but Sansa's face had
remained so still that for a moment he feared she had not understood. it was only later, with a heavy
oaken door between them, that he heard her sobbing. Tyrion had considered going to her then, to offer
what comfort he could. No, he had to remind himself, she will not look for solace from a Lannister. The
most he could do was to shield her from the uglier details of the Red Wedding as they came down from
the Twins. Sansa did not need to hear how her brother's body had been hacked and mutilated, he
decided; nor how her mother's corpse had been dumped naked into the Green Fork in a savage
mockery of House Tully's funeral customs. The last thing the girl needed was more fodder for her
nightmares.
It was not enough, though. He had wrapped his cloak around her shoulders and sworn to protect her,
but that was as cruel a jape as the crown the Freys had placed atop the head of Robb Stark's direwolf
after they'd sewn it onto his headless corpse. Sansa knew that as well. The way she looked at him, her
stiffness when she climbed into their bed ... when he was with her, never for an instant could he forget
who he was, or what he was. No more than she did. She still went nightly to the godswood to
pray, and Tyrion wondered if she were praying for his death. She had lost her home, her place in the
world, and everyone she had ever loved or trusted. Winter is coming, warned the Stark words, and truly
it had come for them with a vengeance. But it is high summer for House Lannister. So why am I so
bloody cold?
He pulled on his boots, fastened his cloak with a lion's head brooch, and slipped out into the torchlit hall.
There was this much to be said for his marriage; it had allowed him to escape Maegor's Holdfast. Now
that he had a wife and household, his lord father had agreed that more suitable accommodations were
required, and Lord Gyles had found himself abruptly dispossessed of his spacious apartments atop the
Kitchen Keep. And splendid apartments they were too, with a large bedchamber and adequate solar, a
bath and dressing room for his wife, and small adjoining chambers for Pod and Sansa's maids. Even
Bronn's cell by the stair had a window of sorts. Well, more an arrow slit, but it lets in light. The castle's
main kitchen was just across the courtyard, true, but Tyrion found those sounds and smells infinitely
preferable to sharing Maegor's with his sister. The less he had to see of Cersei the happier he was like to
be.
Tyrion could hear Brella's snoring as he passed her cell. Shae complained of that, but it seemed a small
enough price to pay. Varys had suggested the woman to him; in former days, she had run Lord Renly's
household in the city, which had given her a deal of practice at being blind, deaf, and mute.


Lighting a taper, he made his way back to the servants' steps and descended. The floors below his own
were still, and he heard no footsteps but his own. Down he went, to the ground floor and beyond, to
emerge in a gloomy cellar with a vaulted stone ceiling. Much of the castle was connected underground,
and the Kitchen Keep was no exception. Tyrion waddled along a long dark passageway until he found
the door he wanted, and pushed through.
Within, the dragon skulls were waiting, and so was Shae. "I thought m'lord had forgotten me." Her dress
was draped over a black tooth near as tall as she was, and she stood within the dragon's jaws, nude.
Balerion, he thought. Or was it Vhagar? One dragon skull looked much like another.
just the sight of her made him hard. "Come out of there."
"I won't." She smiled her wickedest smile. "M'Iord will pluck me from the dragon's jaws, I know." But
when he waddled closer she leaned forward and blew out the taper.
"Shae . . . " He reached, but she spun and slipped free.
"You have to catch me." Her voice came from his left. "M'Iord must have played monsters and maidens
when he was little."
"Are you calling me a monster?"
"No more than I'm a maiden." She was behind him, her steps soft against the floor. "You need to catch
me all the same."
He did, finally, but only because she let herself be caught. By the time she slipped into his arms, he was
flushed and out of breath from stumbling into dragon skulls. All that was forgotten in an instant when he
felt her small breasts pressed against his face in the dark, her stiff little nipples brushing lightly over his lips
and the scar where his nose had been. Tyrion pulled her down onto the floor. "My giant," she breathed as
he entered her. "My giant's come to save me."
After, as they lay entwined amongst the dragon skulls, he rested his head against her, inhaling the smooth
clean smell of her hair. "We should go back," he said reluctantly. "It must be near dawn. Sansa will be
waking."
"You should give her dreamwine," Shae said, "like Lady Tanda does with Lollys. A cup before she goes
to sleep, and we could fuck in bed beside her without her waking." She giggled. "Maybe we should,
some night. Would m'lord like that? " Her hand found his shoulder, and began to knead the muscles
there. "Your neck is hard as stone. What troubles you?"
Tyrion could not see his fingers in front of his face, but he ticked his woes off on them all the same. "My
wife. My sister. My nephew. My father. The Tyrells." He had to move to his other hand. "Varys. Pycelle.
Littlefinger. The Red Viper of Dome." He had come to his last finger. "The face that stares back out of
the water when I wash."
Shae kissed his maimed scarred nose. "A brave face. A kind and good face. I wish I could see it now."
All the sweet innocence of the world was in her voice. Innocence? Fool, she's a whore, all she knows of
men is the bit between their legs. Fool, fool. "Better you than me." Tyrion sat. "We have a long day
before us, both of us. You shouldn't have blown out that taper. How are we to find our clothing?"


She laughed. "Maybe we'll have to go naked."
And if we're seen, my lord father will hang you. Hiring Shae as one of Sansa's maids had given him an
excuse to be seen talking with her, but Tyrion did not delude himself that they were safe. Varys had
warned him. "I gave Shae a false history, but it was meant for Lollys and Lady Tanda. Your sister is of a
more suspicious mind. If she should ask me what I know..."
"You will tell her some clever lie."
"No. I will tell her that the girl is a common camp follower that you acquired before the battle on the
Green Fork and brought to King's Landing against your lord father's express command. I will not lie to
the queen."
"You have lied to her before. Shall I tell her that?"
The eunuch sighed. "That cuts more deeply than a knife, my lord. I have served you loyally, but I must
also serve your sister when I can. How long do you think she would let me live if I were of no further use
to her whatsoever? I have no fierce sellsword to protect me, no valiant brother to avenge me, only some
little birds who whisper in my ear. With those whisperings I must buy my life anew each day."
"Pardon me if I do not weep for you."
"I shall, but you must pardon me if I do not weep for Shae. I confess, I do not understand what there is
in her to make a clever man like you act such a fool."
"You might, if you were not a eunuch."
"Is that the way of it? A man may have wits, or a bit of meat between his legs, but not both?" Varys
tittered. "Perhaps I should be grateful I was cut, then."
The Spider was right. Tyrion groped through the dragon-haunted darkness for his smallclothes, feeling
wretched. The risk he was taking left him tight as a drumhead, and there was guilt as well. The Others
can take my guilt, he thought as he slipped his tunic over his head. Why should I be guilty? My wife
wants no part of me, and most especially not the part that seems to want her. Perhaps he ought to tell her
about Shae. It was not as though he was the first man ever to keep a concubine. Sansa's own
oh-so-honorable father had given her a bastard brother. For all he knew, his wife might be thrilled to
learn that he was fucking Shae, so long as it spared her his unwelcome touch.
No, I dare not. Vows or no, his wife could not be trusted. She might be maiden between the legs, but
she was hardly innocent of betrayal; she had once spilled her own father's plans to Cersei. And girls her
age were not known for keeping secrets.
The only safe course was to rid himself of Shae. I might send her to Chataya, Tyrion reflected,
reluctantly. In Chataya's brothel, Shae would have all the silks and gems she could wish for, and the
gentlest highborn patrons. it would be a better life by far than the one she had been living when he'd
found her.
Or, if she was tired of earning her bread on her back, he might arrange a marriage for her. Bronn,
perhaps? The sellsword had never balked at eating off his master's plate, and he was a knight now, a
better match than she could elsewise hope for. Or Ser Tallad? Tyrion had noticed that one gazing


wistfully at Shae more than once. Why not? He's tall, strong, not hard to look upon, every inch the gifted
young knight. Of course, Tallad knew Shae only as a pretty young lady's maid in service at the castle. If
he wed her and then learned she was a whore ...
"M'lord, where are you? Did the dragons eat you up?"
"No. Here." He groped at a dragon skull. "I have found a shoe, but I believe it's yours."
"M'lord sounds very solemn. Have I displeased you?"
"No," he said, too curtly. "You always please me." And therein is our danger. He might dream of sending
her away at times like this, but that never lasted long. Tyrion saw her dimly through the gloom, pulling a
woolen sock up a slender leg. I can see. A vague light was leaking through the row of long narrow
windows set high in the cellar wall. The skulls of the Targaryen dragons were emerging from the darkness
around them, black amidst grey. "Day comes too soon." A new day. A new year. A new century. I
survived the Green Fork and the Blackwater, I can bloody well survive King loffrey's wedding.
Shae snatched her dress down off the dragon's tooth and slipped it over her head. "I'll go up first. Brella
will want help with the bathwater." She bent over to give him one last kiss, upon the brow. "My giant of
Lannister. I love you so."
And I love you as well, sweetling. A whore she might well be, but she deserved better than what he had
to give her. I will wed her to Ser Tallad. He seems a decent man. And tall ...
Chapter 59
SANSA
That was such a sweet dream, Sansa thought drowsily. She had been back in Winterfell, running through
the godswood with her Lady. Her father had been there, and her brothers, all of them warm and safe. If
only dreaming could make it so ...
She threw back the coverlets. I must be brave. Her torments would soon be ended, one way or the
other. If Lady was here, I would not be afraid. Lady was dead, though; Robb, Bran, Rickon, Arya, her
father, her mother, even Septa Mordane. All of them are dead but me. She was alone in the world now.
Her lord husband was not beside her, but she was used to that. Tyrion was a bad sleeper and often rose
before the dawn. Usually she found him in the solar, hunched beside a candle, lost in some old scroll or
leatherbound book. Sometimes the smell of the morning bread from the ovens took him to the kitchens,
and sometimes he would climb up to the roof garden or wander all alone down Traitor's Walk.
She threw back the shutters and shivered as gooseprickles rose along her arms. There were clouds
massing in the eastern sky, pierced by shafts of sunlight. They look like two huge castles afloat in the
morning sky. Sansa could see their walls of tumbled stone, their mighty keeps and barbicans. Wispy
banners swirled from atop their towers and reached for the fast-fading stars. The sun was coming up
behind them, and she watched them go from black to grey to a thousand shades of rose and gold and
crimson. Soon the wind mushed them together, and there was only one castle where there had been two.


She heard the door open as her maids brought the hot water for
her bath. They were both new to her service; Tyrion said the women who'd tended to her previously had
all been Cersei's spies, just as Sansa had always suspected. "Come see," she told them. "There's a castle
in the sky."
They came to have a look. "It's made of gold." Shae had short dark hair and bold eyes. She did all that
was asked of her, but sometimes she gave Sansa the most insolent looks. "A castle all of gold, there's a
sight I'd like to see."
"A castle, is it?" Brella had to squint. "That tower's tumbling over, looks like. It's all ruins, that is."
Sansa did not want to hear about falling towers and ruined castles. She closed the shutters and said,
"We are expected at the queen's breakfast. Is my lord husband in the solar?"
"No, m'lady," said Brella. "I have not seen him."
"Might be he went to see his father," Shae declared. "Might be the King's Hand had need of his
counsel."
Brella gave a sniff. "Lady Sansa, you'll be wanting to get into the tub before the water gets too cool."
Sansa let Shae pull her shift up over her head and climbed into the big wooden tub. She was tempted to
ask for a cup of wine, to calm her nerves. The wedding was to be at midday in the Great Sept of Baelor
across the city. And come evenfall the feast would be held in the throne room; a thousand guests and
seventy-seven courses, with singers and jugglers and mummers. But first came breakfast in the Queen's
Ballroom, for the Lannisters and the Tyrell men - the Tyrell women would be breaking their fast with
Margaery - and a hundred odd knights and lordlings. They have made me a Lannister, Sansa thought
bitterly.
Brella sent Shae to fetch more hot water while she washed Sansa's back. "You are trembling, m'lady."
"The water is not hot enough," Sansa lied.
Her maids were dressing her when Tyrion appeared, Podrick Payne in tow. "You look lovely, Sansa."
He turned to his squire. "Pod, be so good as to pour me a cup of wine."
"There will be wine at the breakfast, my lord," Sansa said.
"There's wine here. You don't expect me to face my sister sober, surely? It's a new century, my lady.
The three hundredth year since Aegon's Conquest." The dwarf took a cup of red from Podrick and
raised it high. "To Aegon. What a fortunate fellow. Two sisters, two wives, and three big dragons, what
more could a man ask for?" He wiped his mouth with the back of his hand.
The Imp's clothing was soiled and unkempt, Sansa noticed; it looked as though he'd slept in it. "Will you
be changing into fresh garb, my lord? Your new doublet is very handsome."
"The doublet is handsome, yes." Tyrion put the cup aside. "Come, Pod, let us see if we can find some
garments to make me look less dwarfish. I would not want to shame my lady wife."


When the Imp returned a short time later, he was presentable enough, and even a little taller. Podrick
Payne had changed as well, and looked almost a proper squire for once, although a rather large red
pimple in the fold beside his nose spoiled the effect of his splendid purple, white, and gold raiment. He is
such a timid boy. Sansa had been wary of Tyrion's squire at first; he was a Payne, cousin to Ser Ilyn
Payne who had taken her father's head off. However, she'd soon come to realize that Pod was as
frightened of her as she was of his cousin. Whenever she spoke to him, he turned the most alarming
shade of red.
"Are purple, gold, and white the colors of House Payne, Podrick?" she asked him politely.
"No. I mean, yes." He blushed. "The colors. Our arms are purple and white chequy, my lady. With gold
coins. in the checks. Purple and white. Both." He studied her feet.
"There's a tale behind those coins," said Tyrion. "No doubt Pod will confide it to your toes one day. just
now we are expected at the Queen's Ballroom, however. Shall we?"
Sansa was tempted to beg off. I could tell him that my tummy was upset, or that my moon's blood had
come. She wanted nothing more than to crawl back in bed and pull the drapes. I must be brave, like
Robb, she told herself, as she took her lord husband stiffly by the arm.
In the Queen's Ballroom they broke their fast on honeycakes baked with blackberries and nuts, gammon
steaks, bacon, fingerfish crisped in breadcrumbs, autumn pears, and a Dornish dish of onions, cheese,
and chopped eggs cooked up with fiery peppers. "Nothing like a hearty breakfast to whet one's appetite
for the seventy-seven-course feast to follow," Tyrion commented as their plates were filled. There were
flagons of milk and flagons of mead and flagons of a light sweet golden wine to wash it down. Musicians
strolled among the tables, piping and fluting and fiddling, while Ser Dontos galloped about on his
broomstick horse and Moon Boy made farting sounds with his cheeks and sang rude songs about the
guests.
Tyrion scarce touched his food, Sansa noticed, though he drank several cups of the wine. For herself,
she tried a little of the Dornish eggs, but the peppers burned her mouth. Otherwise she only nibbled at the
fruit and fish and honeycakes. Every time Joffrey looked at her, her tummy got so fluttery that she felt as
though she'd swallowed a bat.
When the food had been cleared away, the queen solemnly presented Joff with the wife's cloak that he
would drape over Margaery's shoulders. "It is the cloak I donned when Robert took me for his queen,
the same
cloak my mother Lady Joanna wore when wed to my lord father." Sansa thought it looked threadbare, if
truth be told, but perhaps because it was so used.
Then it was time for gifts. it was traditional in the Reach to give presents to bride and groom on the
morning of their wedding; on the morrow they would receive more presents as a couple, but today's
tokens were for their separate persons.
From Jalabbar Xho, Joffrey received a great bow of golden wood and quiver of long arrows fletched
with green and scarlet feathers; from Lady Tanda a pair of supple riding boots; from Ser Kevan a
magnificent red leather jousting saddle; a red gold brooch wrought in the shape of a scorpion from the
Dornishman, Prince Oberyn; silver spurs from Ser Addam Marbrand; a red silk tourney pavilion from
Lord Mathis Rowan. Lord Paxter Redwyne brought forth a beautiful wooden model of the war galley of
two hundred oars being built even now on the Arbor. "If it please Your Grace, she will be called King


loffrey's Valor," he said, and Joff allowed that he was very pleased indeed. "I will make it my flagship
when I sail to Dragonstone to kill my traitor uncle Stannis," he said.
He plays the gracious king today. Joffrey could be gallant when it suited him, Sansa knew, but it seemed
to suit him less and less. Indeed, all his courtesy vanished at once when Tyrion presented him with their
own gift: a huge old book called Lives of Four Kings, bound in leather and gorgeously illuminated. The
king leafed through it with no interest. "And what is this, Uncle?"
A book. Sansa wondered if Joffrey moved those fat wormy lips of his when he read.
"Grand Maester Kaeth's history of the reigns of Daeron the Young Dragon, Baelor the Blessed, Aegon
the Unworthy, and Daeron the Good," her small husband answered.
"A book every king should read, Your Grace," said Ser Kevan.
"My father had no time for books." Joffrey shoved the tome across the table. "If you read less, Uncle
Imp, perhaps Lady Sansa would have a baby in her belly by now." He laughed ... and when the king
laughs, the court laughs with him. "Don't be sad, Sansa, once I've gotten Queen Margaery with child I'll
visit your bedchamber and show my little uncle how it's done."
Sansa reddened. She glanced nervously at Tyrion, afraid of what he might say. This could turn as nasty
as the bedding had at their own feast. But for once the dwarf filled his mouth with wine instead of words.
Lord Mace Tyrell came forward to present his gift: a golden chalice three feet tall, with two ornate
curved handles and seven faces glittering with gemstones. "Seven faces for Your Grace's seven
kingdoms," the bride's father explained. He showed them how each face bore the sigil of
one of the great houses: ruby lion, emerald rose, onyx stag, silver trout, blue jade falcon, opal sun, and
pearl direwolf.
"A splendid cup," said Joffrey, "but we'll need to chip the wolf off and put a squid in its place, I think."
Sansa pretended that she had not heard.
"Margaery and I shall drink deep at the feast, good father." Joffrey lifted the chalice above his head, for
everyone to admire.
"The damned thing's as tall as I am," Tyrion muttered in a low voice. "Half a chalice and Joff will be
falling down drunk."
Good, she thought. Perhaps he'll break his neck.
Lord Tywin waited until last to present the king with his own gift: a longsword. Its scabbard was made
of cherrywood, gold, and oiled red leather, studded with golden lions' heads. The lions had ruby eyes,
she saw. The ballroom fell silent as Joffrey unsheathed the blade and thrust the sword above his head.
Red and black ripples in the steel shimmered in the morning light.
"Magnificent," declared Mathis Rowan.
"A sword to sing of, sire," said Lord Redwyne.


"A king's sword," said Ser Kevan Lannister.
King Joffrey looked as if he wanted to kill someone right then and there, he was so excited. He slashed
at the air and laughed. "A great sword must have a great name, my lords! What shall I call it?"
Sansa remembered Lion's Tooth, the sword Arya had flung into the Trident, and Hearteater, the one
he'd made her kiss before the battle. She wondered if he'd want Margaery to kiss this one.
The guests were shouting out names for the new blade. Joff dismissed a dozen before he heard one he
liked. "Widow's Wail!" he cried. "Yes! It shall make many a widow, too!" He slashed again. "And when I
face my uncle Stannis it will break his magic sword clean in two." Joff tried a downcut, forcing Ser Balon
Swann to take a hasty step backward. Laughter rang through the hall at the look on Ser Balon's face.
"Have a care, Your Grace," Ser Addam Marbrand warned the king. "Valyrian steel is perilously sharp."
"I remember." Joffrey brought Widow's Wail down in a savage twohanded slice, onto the book that
Tyrion had given him. The heavy leather cover parted at a stroke. "Sharp! I told you, I am no stranger to
Valyrian steel." It took him half a dozen further cuts to hack the thick tome apart, and the boy was
breathless by the time he was done. Sansa could feel her husband struggling with his fury as Ser Osmund
Kettleblack shouted, "I pray you never turn that wicked edge on me, sire."
"See that you never give me cause, ser." Joffrey flicked a chunk of Lives of Four Kings off the table at
swordpoint, then slid Widow's Wail back into its scabbard.
"Your Grace," Ser Garlan Tyrell said. "Perhaps you did not know. In all of Westeros there were but four
copies of that book illuminated in Kaeth's own hand."
"Now there are three." Joffrey undid his old swordbelt to don his new one. "You and Lady Sansa owe
me a better present, Uncle Imp. This one is all chopped to pieces."
Tyrion was staring at his nephew with his mismatched eyes. "Perhaps a knife, sire. To match your
sword. A dagger of the same fine Valyrian steel ... with a dragonbone hilt, say?"
Joff gave him a sharp look. "You ... yes, a dagger to match my sword, good." He nodded. "A ... a gold
hilt with rubies in it. Dragonbone is too plain."
"As you wish, Your Grace. " Tyrion drank another cup of wine. He might have been all alone in his solar
for all the attention he paid Sansa. But when the time came to leave for the wedding, he took her by the
hand.
As they were crossing the yard, Prince Oberyn of Dorne fell in beside them, his black-haired paramour
on his arm. Sansa glanced at the woman curiously. She was baseborn and unwed, and had home two
bastard daughters for the prince, but she did not fear to look even the queen in the eye. Shae had told her
that this Ellaria worshiped some Lysene love goddess. "She was almost a whore when he found her,
m'lady," her maid confided, "and now she's near a princess." Sansa had never been this close to the
Dornishwoman before. She is not truly beautiful, she thought, but something about her draws the eye.
"I once had the great good fortune to see the Citadel's copy of Lives of Four Kings," Prince Oberyn was
telling her lord husband. "The illuminations were wondrous to behold, but Kaeth was too kind by half to
King Viserys."


Tyrion gave him a sharp look. "Too kind? He scants Viserys shamefully, in my view. It should have been
Lives of Five Kings."
The prince laughed. "Viserys hardly reigned a fortnight."
"He reigned more than a year," said Tyrion.
Oberyn gave a shrug. "A year or a fortnight, what does it matter? He poisoned his own nephew to gain
the throne and then did nothing once he had it."
"Baelor starved himself to death, fasting," said Tyrion. "His uncle served him loyally as Hand, as he had
served the Young Dragon before him. Viserys might only have reigned a year, but he ruled for fifteen,
while Daeron warred and Baelor prayed." He made a sour face. "And if he did remove his nephew, can
you blame him? Someone had to save the realm from Baelor's follies."
Sansa was shocked. "But Baelor the Blessed was a great king. He walked the Boneway barefoot to
make peace with Dorne, and rescued the
Dragonknight from a snakepit. The vipers refused to strike him because he was so pure and holy."
Prince Oberyn smiled. "If you were a viper, my lady, would you want to bite a bloodless stick like
Baelor the Blessed? I'd sooner save my fangs for someone juicier..."
"My prince is playing with you, Lady Sansa," said the woman Ellaria Sand. "The septons and singers like
to say that the snakes did not bite Baelor, but the truth is very different. He was bitten half a hundred
times, and should have died from it."
"If he had, Viserys would have reigned a dozen years," said Tyrion, Iiand the Seven Kingdoms might
have been better served. Some believe Baelor was deranged by all that venom."
"Yes," said Prince Oberyn, "but I've seen no snakes in this Red Keep of yours. So how do you account
for Joffrey?"
"I prefer not to." Tyrion inclined his head stiffly. "If you will excuse us. Our litter awaits." The dwarf
helped Sansa up inside and clambered awkwardly after her. "Close the curtains, my lady, if you'd be so
good."
"Must we, my lord? " Sansa did not want to be shut behind the curtains. "The day is so lovely."
"The good people of King's Landing are like to throw dung at the litter if they see me inside it. Do us
both a kindness, my lady. Close the curtains. "
She did as he bid her. They sat for a time, as the air grew warm and stuffy around them. "I was sorry
about your book, my lord," she made herself say.
"It was Joffrey's book. He might have learned a thing or two if he'd read it." He sounded distracted. "I
should have known better. I should have seen . . . a good many things."
"Perhaps the dagger will please him more."
When the dwarf grimaced, his scar tightened and twisted. "The boy's earned himself a dagger, wouldn't


you say?" Thankfully Tyrion did not wait for her reply. "Joff quarreled with your brother Robb at
Winterfell. Tell me, was there ill feeling between Bran and His Grace as well?"
"Bran?" The question confused her. "Before he fell, you mean?" She had to try and think back. It was all
so long ago. "Bran was a sweet boy. Everyone loved him. He and Tornmen fought with wooden swords,
I remember, but just for play."
Tyrion lapsed back into moody silence. Sansa heard the distant clank of chains from outside; the
portcullis was being drawn up. A moment later there was a shout, and their litter swayed into motion.
Deprived of the passing scenery, she chose to stare at her folded hands, uncomfortably aware of her
husand's mismatched eyes. Why is he looking at me that way?
"You loved your brothers, much as I love Jaime."
Is this some Lannister trap to make me speak treason? "My brothers were traitors, and they've gone to
traitors' graves. It is treason to love a traitor. "
Her little husband snorted. "Robb rose in arms against his rightful king. By law, that made him a traitor.
The others died too young to know what treason was." He rubbed his nose. "Sansa, do you know what
happened to Bran at Winterfell?"
"Bran fell. He was always climbing things, and finally he fell. We always feared he would. And Theon
Greyjoy killed him, but that was later."
"Theon Grey-joy." Tyrion sighed. "Your lady mother once accused me ... well, I will not burden you
with the ugly details. She accused me falsely. I never harmed your brother Bran. And I mean no harm to
you."
What does he want me to say? "That is good to know, my lord." He wanted something from her, but
Sansa did not know what it was. He looks like a starving child, but I have no food to give him. Why
won't he leave me be?
Tyrion rubbed at his scarred, scabby nose yet again, an ugly habit that drew the eye to his ugly face.
"You have never asked me how Robb died, or your lady mother."
"I ... would sooner not know. It would give me bad dreams."
"Then I will say no more."
"That ... that's kind of you."
"Oh, yes," said Tyrion. "I am the very soul of kindness. And I know about bad dreams."
Chapter 60
TYRION


The new crown that his father had given the Faith stood twice as tall as the one the mob had smashed, a
glory of crystal and spun gold. Rainbow light flashed and shimmered every time the High Septon moved
his head, but Tyrion had to wonder how the man could bear the weight. And even he had to concede
that Joffrey and Margaery made a regal couple, as they stood side-by-side between the towering gilded
statues of the Father and the Mother.
The bride was lovely in ivory silk and Myrish lace, her skirts decorated with floral patterns picked out in
seed pearls. As Renly's widow, she might have worn the Baratheon colors, gold and black, yet she came
to them a Tyrell, in a maiden's cloak made of a hundred cloth-of-gold roses sewn to green velvet. He
wondered if she really was a maiden. Not that Joffrey is like to know the difference.
The king looked near as splendid as his bride, in his doublet of dusky rose, beneath a cloak of deep
crimson velvet blazoned with his stag and lion. The crown rested easily on his curls, gold on gold. I saved
that bloody crown for him. Tyrion shifted his weight uncomfortably from one foot to the other. He could
not stand still. Too much wine. He should have thought to relieve himself before they set out from the Red
Keep. The sleepless night he'd spent with Shae was making itself felt too, but most of all he wanted to
strangle his bloody royal nephew.
I am no stranger to Valyrian steel, the boy had boasted. The septons were always going on about how
the Father Above judges us all. If the Father would be so good as to topple over and crush loff like a
dung beetle, I might even believe it.
He ought to have seen it long ago. Jaime would never send another man to do his killing, and Cersei was
too cunning to use a knife that could be traced back to her, but Joff, arrogant vicious stupid little wretch
that he was ...
He remembered a cold morning when he'd climbed down the steep exterior steps from Winterfell's
library to find Prince Joffrey jesting with the Hound about killing wolves. Send a dog to kill a wolf, he
said. Even Joffrey was not so foolish as to command Sandor Clegane to slay a son of Eddard Stark,
however; the Hound would have gone to Cersei. Instead the boy found his catspaw among the unsavory
lot of freeriders, merchants, and camp followers who'd attached themselves to the king's party as they
made their way north. Some poxy lackwit willing to risk his life for a prince's favor and a little coin.
Tyrion wondered whose idea it had been to wait until Robert left Winterfell before opening Bran's throat.
loffs, most like. No doubt he thought it was the height of cunning.
The prince's own dagger had a jeweled pommel and inlaid goldwork on the blade, Tyrion seemed to
recall. At least Joff had not been stupid enough to use that. Instead he went poking among his father's
weapons. Robert Baratheon was a man of careless generosity, and would have given his son any dagger
he wanted ... but Tyrion guessed that the boy had just taken it. Robert had come to Winterfell. with a
long tail of knights and retainers, a huge wheelhouse, and a baggage train. No doubt some diligent servant
had made certain that the king's weapons went with him, in case he should desire any of them.
The blade Joff chose was nice and plain. No goldwork, no jewels in the hilt, no silver inlay on the blade.
King Robert never wore it, had likely forgotten he owned it. Yet the Valyrian steel was deadly sharp ...
sharp enough to slice through skin, flesh, and muscle in one quick stroke. I am no stranger to Valyrian
steel. But he had been, hadn't he? Else he would never have been so foolish as to pick Littlefinger's knife.
The why of it still eluded him. Simple cruelty, perhaps? His nephew had that in abundance. It was all
Tyrion could do not to retch up all the wine he'd drunk, piss in his breeches, or both. He squirmed
uncomfortably. He ought to have held his tongue at breakfast. The boy knows I know now My big
mouth will be the death of me, I swear it.


The seven vows were made, the seven blessings invoked, and the seven promises exchanged. When the
wedding song had been sung and the challenge had gone unanswered, it was time for the exchange of
cloaks. Tyrion shifted his weight from one stunted leg to the other, trying to see between his father and his
uncle Kevan. If the gods are just, loff will make a hash of this. He made certain not to look at Sansa, lest
his bitterness show in his eyes. You might have knelt, damn you. Would it
have been so bloody hard to bend those stiff Stark knees of yours and let me keep a little dignity?
Mace Tyrell removed his daughter's maiden cloak tenderly, while Joffrey accepted the folded bride's
cloak from his brother Tornmen and shook it out with a flourish. The boy king was as tall at thirteen as
his bride was at sixteen; he would not require a fool's back to climb upon. He draped Margaery in the
crimson-and-gold and leaned close to fasten it at her throat. And that easily she passed from her father's
protection to her husband's. But who will protect her from loff? Tyrion glanced at the Knight of Flowers,
standing with the other Kingsguard. You had best keep your sword well honed, Ser Loras.
"With this kiss I pledge my love! " Joffrey declared in ringing tones. When Margaery echoed the words
he pulled her close and kissed her long and deep. Rainbow lights danced once more about the High
Septon's crown as he solemnly declared Joffrey of the Houses Baratheon and Lannister and Margaery of
House Tyrell to be one flesh, one heart, one soul.
Good, that's done with. Now let's get back to the bloody castle so I can have a piss.
Ser Loras and Ser Meryn led the procession from the sept in their white scale armor and snowy cloaks.
Then came Prince Tommen, scattering rose petals from a basket before the king and queen. After the
royal couple followed Queen Cersei and Lord Tyrell, then the bride's mother arm-in-arm with Lord
Tywin. The Queen of Thorns tottered after them with one hand on Ser Kevan Lannister's arm and the
other on her cane, her twin guardsmen close behind her in case she fell. Next came Ser Garlan Tyrell and
his lady wife, and finally it was their turn.
"My lady." Tyrion offered Sansa his arm. She took it dutifully, but he could feel her stiffness as they
walked up the aisle together. She never once looked down at him.
He heard them cheering outside even before he reached the doors. The mob loved Margaery so much
they were even willing to love Joffrey again. She had belonged to Renly, the handsome young prince who
had loved them so well he had come back from beyond the grave to save them. And the bounty of
Highgarden had come with her, flowing up the roseroad from the south. The fools didn't seem to
remember that it had been Mace Tyrell who closed the roseroad to begin with, and made the bloody
famine.
They stepped out into the crisp autumn air. "I feared we'd never escape," Tyrion quipped.
Sansa had no choice but to look at him then. "I ... yes, my lord. As you say." She looked sad. "it was
such a beautiful ceremony, though."
As ours was not. "It was long, I'll say that much. I need to return to the castle for a good piss." Tyrion
rubbed the stump of his nose. "Would
that I'd contrived some mission to take me out of the city. Littlefinger was the clever one."
Joffrey and Margaery stood surrounded by Kingsguard atop the steps that fronted on the broad marble


plaza. Ser Addam and his gold cloaks held back the crowd, while the statue of King Baelor the Blessed
gazed down on them benevolently. Tyrion had no choice but to queue up with the rest to offer
congratulations. He kissed Margaery's fingers and wished her every happiness. Thankfully, there were
others behind them waiting their turn, so they did not need to linger long.
Their litter had been sitting in the sun, and it was very warm inside the curtains. As they lurched into
motion, Tyrion reclined on an elbow while Sansa sat staring at her hands. She is just as comely as the
Tyrell girl. Her hair was a rich autumn auburn, her eyes a deep Tully blue. Grief had given her a haunted,
vulnerable look; if anything, it had only made her more beautiful. He wanted to reach her, to break
through the armor of her courtesy. Was that what made him speak? Or just the need to distract himself
from the fullness in his bladder?
"I had been thinking that when the roads are safe again, we might journey to Casterly Rock." Far from
Joffrey and my sister. The more he thought about what Joff had done to Lives of Four Kings, the more it
troubled him. There was a message there, oh yes. "It would please me to show you the Golden Gallery
and the Lion's Mouth, and the Hall of Heroes where Jaime and I played as boys. You can hear thunder
from below where the sea comes in..."
She raised her head slowly. He knew what she was seeing; the swollen brutish brow, the raw stump of
his nose, his crooked pink scar and mismatched eyes. Her own eyes were big and blue and empty. "I
shall go wherever my lord husband wishes."
"I had hoped it might please you, my lady."
"It will please me to please my lord."
His mouth tightened. What a pathetic little man you are. Did you think babbling about the Lion's Mouth
would make her smile? When have you ever made a woman smile but with gold? "No, it was a foolish
notion. Only a Lannister can love the Rock."
"Yes, my lord. As you wish."
Tyrion could hear the commons shouting out King Joffrey's name. In three years that cruel boy will be a
man, ruling in his own right ... and every dwarf with half his wits will be a long way from King's Landing.
Oldtown, perhaps. Or even the Free Cities. He had always had a yen to see the Titan of Braavos.
Perhaps that would please Sansa. Gently, he spoke of Braavos, and met a wall of sullen courtesy as icy
and unyielding as the Wall he had walked once in the north. It made him weary. Then and now.
They passed the rest of the journey in silence. After a while, Tyrion
found himself hoping that Sansa would say something, anything, the merest word, but she never spoke.
When the litter halted in the castle yard, he let one of the grooms help her down. "We will be expected at
the feast an hour hence, my lady. I will join you shortly." He walked off stiff-legged. Across the yard, he
could hear Margaery's breathless laugh as Joffrey swept her from the saddle. The boy will be as tall and
strong as Jaime one day, he thought, and IT stifl be a dwarf beneath his feet. And one day he's like to
make me even shorter ...
He found a privy and sighed gratefully as he relieved himself of the morning's wine. There were times
when a piss felt near as good as a woman, and this was one. He wished he could relieve himself of his
doubts and guilts half as easily.


Podrick Payne was waiting outside his chambers. "I laid out your new doublet. Not here. On your bed.
in the bedchamber."
"Yes, that's where we keep the bed." Sansa would be in there, dressing for the feast. Shae as well.
"Wine, Pod."
Tyrion drank it in his window seat, brooding over the chaos of the kitchens below. The sun had not yet
touched the top of the castle wall, but he could smell breads baking and meats roasting. The guests
would soon be pouring into the throne room, full of anticipation; this would be an evening of song and
splendor, designed not only to unite Highgarden and Casterly Rock but to trumpet their power and
wealth as a lesson to any who might still think to oppose Joffrey's rule.
But who would be mad enough to contest Joffrey's rule now, after what had befallen Stannis Baratheon
and Robb Stark? There was still fighting in the riverlands, but everywhere the coils were tightening. Ser
Gregor Clegane had crossed the Trident and seized the ruby ford, then captured Harrenhal almost
effortlessly. Seagard had yielded to Black Walder Frey, Lord Randyll Tarly held Maidenpool,
Duskendale, and the kingsroad. In the west, Ser Daven Lannister had linked up with Ser Forley Prester
at the Golden Tooth for a march on Riverrun. Ser Ryman Frey was leading two thousand spears down
from the Twins to join them. And Paxter Redwyne claimed his fleet would soon set sail from the Arbor,
to begin the long voyage around Dome and through the Stepstones. Stannis's Lyseni pirates would be
outnumbered ten to one. The struggle that the maesters were calling the War of the Five Kings was all
but at an end. Mace Tyrell had been heard complaining that Lord Tywin had left no victories for him.
"My lord?" Pod was at his side. "Will you be changing? I laid out the doublet. On your bed. For the
feast."
"Feast?" said Tyrion sourly. "What feast?"
"The wedding feast." Pod missed the sarcasm, of course. "King Joffrey and Lady Margaery. Queen
Margaery, I mean."
Tyrion resolved to get very, very drunk tonight. "Very well, young Podrick, let us go make me festive."
Shae was helping Sansa with her hair when they entered the bedchamber. Joy and grief, he thought
when he beheld them there together. Laughter and tears. Sansa wore a gown of silvery satin trimmed in
vair, with dagged sleeves that almost touched the floor, lined in soft purple felt. Shae had arranged her
hair artfully in a delicate silver net winking with dark purple gemstones. Tyrion had never seen her look
more lovely, yet she wore sorrow on those long satin sleeves. "Lady Sansa," he told her, "you shall be the
most beautiful woman in the hall tonight."
"My lord is too kind."
"My lady," said Shae wistfully. "Couldn't I come serve at table? I so want to see the pigeons fly out of
the pie."
Sansa looked at her uncertainly. "The queen has chosen all the servers."
"And the hall will be too crowded." Tyrion had to bite back his annoyance. "There will be musicians
strolling all through the castle, though, and tables in the outer ward with food and drink for all." He
inspected his new doublet, crimson velvet with padded shoulders and puffed sleeves slashed to show the
black satin underlining. A handsome garment. All it wants is a handsome man to wear it. "Come, Pod,


help me into this."
He had another cup of wine as he dressed, then took his wife by the arm and escorted her from the
Kitchen Keep to join the river of silk, satin, and velvet flowing toward the throne room. Some guests had
gone inside to find their places on the benches. Others were milling in front of the doors, enjoying the
unseasonable warmth of the afternoon. Tyrion led Sansa around the yard, to perform the necessary
courtesies.
She is good at this, he thought, as he watched her tell Lord Gyles that his cough was sounding better,
compliment Elinor Tyrell on her gown, and question Jalabhar Xho about wedding customs in the Summer
Isles. His cousin Ser Lancel had been brought down by Ser Kevan, the first time he'd left his sickbed
since the battle. He looks ghastly. Lancel's hair had turned white and brittle, and he was thin as a stick.
Without his father beside him holding him up, he would surely have collapsed. Yet when Sansa praised
his valor and said how good it was to see him getting strong again, both Lancel and Ser Kevan beamed.
She would have made Joffrey a good queen and a better wife if he'd had the sense to love her. He
wondered if his nephew was capable of loving anyone.
"You do look quite exquisite, child," Lady Olenna Tyrell told Sansa when she tottered up to them in a
cloth-of-gold gown that must have weighed more than she did. "The wind has been at your hair, though."
The little old woman reached up and fussed at the loose strands, tucking
them back into place and straightening Sansa's hair net. "I was very sorry to hear about your losses," she
said as she tugged and fiddled. "Your brother was a terrible traitor, I know, but if we start killing men at
weddings they'll be even more frightened of marriage than they are presently. There, that's better." Lady
Olenna smiled. "I am pleased to say I shall be leaving for Highgarden the day after next. I have had quite
enough of this smelly city, thank you. Perhaps you would like to accompany me for a little visit, whilst the
men are off having their war? I shall miss my Margaery so dreadfully, and all her lovely ladies. Your
company would be such sweet solace."
"You are too kind, my lady," said Sansa, "but my place is with my lord husband."
Lady Olenna gave Tyrion a wrinkled, toothless smile. "Oh? Forgive a silly old woman, my lord, I did not
mean to steal your lovely wife. I assumed you would be off leading a Lannister host against some wicked
foe."
"A host of dragons and stags. The master of coin must remain at court to see that all the armies are paid
for."
"To be sure. Dragons and stags, that's very clever. And dwarf's pennies as well. I have heard of these
dwarf's pennies. No doubt collecting those is such a dreadful chore."
"I leave the collecting to others, my lady."
"Oh, do you? I would have thought you might want to tend to it yourself. We can't have the crown being
cheated of its dwarf's pennies, now. Can we?"
"Gods forbid." Tyrion was beginning to wonder whether Lord Luthor Tyrell had ridden off that cliff
intentionally. "If you will excuse us, Lady Olenna, it is time we were in our places."
"Myself as well. Seventy-seven courses, I daresay. Don't you find that a bit excessive, my lord? I shan't
eat more than three or four bites myself, but you and I are very little, aren't we?" She patted Sansa's hair


again and said, "Well, off with you, child, and try to be merrier. Now where have my guardsmen gone?
Left, Right, where are you? Come help me to the dais."
Although evenfall was still an hour away, the throne room was already a blaze of light, with torches
burning in every sconce. The guests stood along the tables as heralds called out the names and titles of
the lords and ladies making their entrance. Pages in the royal livery escorted them down the broad central
aisle. The gallery above was packed with musicians; drummers and pipers and fiddlers, strings and horns
and skins.
Tyrion clutched Sansa's arm and made the walk with a heavy waddling stride. He could feel their eyes
on him, picking at the fresh new sear that had left him even uglier than he had been before. Let them look,
he
thought as he hopped up onto his seat. Let them stare and whisper until they've had their fill, I will not
hide myself for their sake. The Queen of Thorns followed them in, shuffling along with tiny little steps.
Tyrion wondered which of them looked more absurd, him with Sansa or the wizened little woman
between her seven-foot-tall twin guardsmen.
Joffrey and Margaery rode into the throne room on matched white chargers. Pages ran before them,
scattering rose petals under their hooves. The king and queen had changed for the feast as well. Joffrey
wore striped black-and-crimson breeches and a cloth-of-gold doublet with black satin sleeves and onyx
studs. Margaery had exchanged the demure gown that she had worn in the sept for one much more
revealing, a confection in pale green samite with a tight-laced bodice that bared her shoulders and the
tops of her small breasts. Unbound, her soft brown hair tumbled over her white shoulders and down her
back almost to her waist. Around her brows was a slim golden crown. Her smile was shy and sweet. A
lovely girl, thought Tyrion, and a kinder fate than my nephew deserves.
The Kingsguard. escorted them onto the dais, to the seats of honor beneath the shadow of the Iron
Throne, draped for the occasion in long silk streamers of Baratheon gold, Lannister crimson, and Tyrell
green. Cersei embraced Margaery and kissed her cheeks. Lord Tywin did the same, and then Lancel
and Ser Kevan. Joffrey received loving kisses from the bride's father and his two new brothers, Loras
and Garlan. No one seemed in any great rush to kiss Tyrion. When the king and queen had taken their
seats, the High Septon rose to lead a prayer. At least he does not drone as badly as the last one, Tyrion
consoled himself.
He and Sansa had been seated far to the king's right, beside Ser Garlan Tyrell and his wife, the Lady
Leonette. A dozen others sat closer to Joffrey, which a pricklier man might have taken for a slight, given
that he had been the King's Hand only a short time past. Tyrion would have been glad if there had been a
hundred.
"Let the cups be filled!" Joffrey proclaimed, when the gods had been given their due. His cupbearer
poured a whole flagon of dark Arbor red into the golden wedding chalice that Lord Tyrell had given him
that morning. The king had to use both hands to lift it. "To my wife the queen!"
"Margaery!" the hall shouted back at him. "Margaery! Margaery! To the queen!" A thousand cups rang
together, and the wedding feast was well and truly begun. Tyrion Lannister drank with the rest, emptying
his cup on that first toast and signaling for it to be refilled as soon as he was seated again.
The first dish was a creamy soup of mushrooms and buttered snails, served in gilded bowls. Tyrion had
scarcely touched the breakfast, and the wine had already gone to his head, so the food was welcome. He


finished quickly. One done, seventy-six to come. Seventy-seven dishes, while there are still starving
children in this city, and men who would kill for a radish. They might not love the Tyrells half so well if
they could see us now
Sansa tasted a spoonful of soup and pushed the bowl away. "Not to your liking, my lady?" Tyrion
asked.
"There's to be so much, my lord. I have a little tummy." She fiddled nervously with her hair and looked
down the table to where Joffrey sat with his Tyrell queen.
Does she wish it were her in Margaery's place? Tyrion frowned. Even a child should have better sense.
He turned away, wanting distraction, but everywhere he looked were women, fair fine beautiful happy
women who belonged to other men. Margaery, of course, smiling sweetly as she and Joffrey shared a
drink from the great seven-sided wedding chalice. Her mother Lady Alerie, silver-haired and handsome,
still proud beside Mace Tyrell. The queen's three young cousins, bright as birds. Lord Merryweather's
dark-haired Myrish wife with her big black sultry eyes. Ellaria Sand among the Dornishmen (Cersei had
placed them at their own table, just below the dais in a place of high honor but as far from the Tyrells as
the width of the hall would allow), laughing at something the Red Viper had told her.
And there was one woman, sitting almost at the foot of the third table on the left ... the wife of one of the
Fossoways, he thought, and heavy with his child. Her delicate beauty was in no way diminished by her
belly, nor was her pleasure in the food and frolics. Tyrion watched as her husband fed her morsels off his
plate. They drank from the same cup, and would kiss often and unpredictably. Whenever they did, his
hand would gently rest upon her stomach, a tender and protective gesture.
He wondered what Sansa would do if he leaned over and kissed her right now. Flinch away, most likely.
Or be brave and suffer through it, as was her duty. She is nothing if not dutiful, this wife of mine. If he told
her that he wished to have her maidenhead tonight, she would suffer that dutifully as well, and weep no
more than she had to.
He called for more wine. By the time he got it, the second course was being served, a pastry coffyn filled
with pork, pine nuts, and eggs. Sansa ate no more than a bite of hers, as the heralds were summoning the
first of the seven singers.
Grey-bearded Hamish the Harper announced that he would perform "for the ears of gods and men, a
song ne'er heard before in all the Seven Kingdoms." He called it "Lord Renly's Ride."
His fingers moved across the strings of the high harp, filling the throne room with sweet sound. "From his
throne of bones the Lord of Death looked down on the murdered lord," Hamish began, and went on to
tell
how Renly, repenting his attempt to usurp his nephew's crown, had defied the Lord of Death himself and
crossed back to the land of the living to defend the realm against his brother.
And for this poor Symon wound up in a bowl of brown, Tyrion mused. Queen Margaery was
teary-eyed by the end, when the shade of brave Lord Renly flew to Highgarden to steal one last look at
his true love's face. "Renly Baratheon never repented of anything in his life," the Imp told Sansa, "but if
I'm any judge, Hamish just won himself a gilded lute."
The Harper also gave them several more familiar songs. "A Rose of Gold" was for the Tyrells, no doubt,
as "The Rains of Castamere" was meant to flatter his father. "Maiden, Mother, and Crone" delighted the


High Septon, and "My Lady Wife" pleased all the little girls with romance in their hearts, and no doubt
some little boys as well. Tyrion listened with half a ear, as he sampled sweetcorn fritters and hot oatbread
baked with bits of date, apple, and orange, and gnawed on the rib of a wild boar.
Thereafter dishes and diversions succeeded one another in a staggering profusion, buoyed along upon a
flood of wine and ale. Hamish left them, his place taken by a smallish elderly bear who danced clumsily to
pipe and drum while the wedding guests ate trout cooked in a crust of crushed almonds. Moon Boy
mounted his stilts and strode around the tables in pursuit of Lord Tyrell's ludicrously fat fool Butterbumps,
and the lords and ladies sampled roast herons and cheese-and-onion pies. A troupe of Pentoshi tumblers
performed cartwheels and handstands, balanced platters on their bare feet, and stood upon each other's
shoulders to form a pyramid. Their feats were accompanied by crabs boiled in fiery eastern spices,
trenchers filled with chunks of chopped mutton stewed in almond milk with carrots, raisins, and onions,
and fish tarts fresh from the ovens, served so hot they burned the fingers.
Then the heralds summoned another singer; Collio Quaynis of Tyrosh, who had a vermilion beard and an
accent as ludicrous as Symon had promised. Collio began with his version of "The Dance of the
Dragons," which was more properly a song for two singers, male and female. Tyrion suffered through it
with a double helping of honey-ginger partridge and several cups of wine. A haunting ballad of two dying
lovers amidst the Doom of Valyria might have pleased the hall more if Collio had not sung it in High
Valyrian, which most of the guests could not speak. But "Bessa the Barmaid" won them back with its
ribald lyrics. Peacocks were served in their plumage, roasted whole and stuffed with dates, while Collio
summoned a drummer, bowed low before Lord Tywin, and launched into "The Rains of Castamere."
If I have to hear seven versions of that, I may go down to Flea Bottom and apologize to the stew. Tyrion
turned to his wife. "So which did you prefer? "
Sansa blinked at him. "My lord?"
"The singers. Which did you prefer?"
,'I ... I'm sorry, my lord. I was not listening."
She was not eating, either. "Sansa, is aught amiss?" He spoke without thinking, and instantly felt the fool.
All her kin are slaughtered and she's wed to me, and I wonder what's amiss.
"No, my lord." She looked away from him, and feigned an unconvincing interest in Moon Boy pelting
Ser Dontos with dates.
Four master pyromancers conjured up beasts of living flame to tear at each other with flery claws whilst
the serving men ladeled out bowls of blandissory, a mixture of beef broth and boiled wine sweetened
with honey and dotted with blanched almonds and chunks of capon. Then came some strolling pipers and
clever dogs and sword swallowers, with buttered pease, chopped nuts, and slivers of swan poached in a
sauce of saffron and peaches. ("Not swan again," Tyrion muttered, remembering his supper with his sister
on the eve of battle.) A juggler kept a half-dozen swords and axes whirling through the air as skewers of
blood sausage were brought sizzling to the tables, a juxtaposition that Tyrion thought passing clever,
though not perhaps in the best of taste.
The heralds blew their trumpets. "To sing for the golden lute," one cried, "we give you Galyeon of Cuy."
Galyeon was a big barrel-chested man with a black beard, a bald head, and a thunderous voice that
filled every comer of the throne room. He brought no fewer than six musicians to play for him. "Noble


lords and ladies fair, I sing but one song for you this night," he announced. "It is the song of the
Blackwater, and how a realm was saved." The drummer began a slow ominous beat.
"The dark lord broodedhigh in his tower," Galyeon began, "in a castle as black as the night."
"Black was his hair and black was his soul," the musicians chanted in unison. A flute came in.
"He feasted on bloodlust and envy, and filled his cup full up with spite," sang Galyeon. "My brother once
ruled seven kingdoms, he said to his harridan wife. Ill take what was his and make it all mine. Let his son
feel the point of my knife."
"A brave young boy with hair of gold," his players chanted, as a woodharp and a fiddle began to play.
"if I am ever Hand again, the first thing I'll do is hang all the singers," said Tyrion, too loudly.
Lady Leonette laughed lightly beside him, and Ser Garlan leaned over to say, "A valiant deed unsung is
no less valiant."
"The dark lord assembled his legions, they gathered around him like crows. And thirsty for blood they
boarded their ships..."
". . . and cut off poor Tyrion's nose," Tyrion finished.
Lady Leonette giggled. "Perhaps you should be a singer, my lord. You rhyme as well as this Galyeon."
"No, my lady," Ser Garlan said. "My lord of Lannister was made to do great deeds, not to sing of them.
But for his chain and his wildfire, the foe would have been across the river. And if Tyrion's wildlings had
not slain most of Lord Stannis's scouts, we would never have been able to take him unawares."
His words made Tyrion feel absurdly grateful, and helped to mollify him as Galyeon sang endless verses
about the valor of the boy king and his mother, the golden queen.
"She never did that," Sansa blurted out suddenly.
"Never believe anything you hear in a song, my lady." Tyrion summoned a serving man to refill their wine
cups.
Soon it was full night outside the tall windows, and still Galyeon sang on. His song had seventy-seven
verses, though it seemed more like a thousand. One for every guest in the hall. Tyrion drank his way
through the last twenty or so, to help resist the urge to stuff mushrooms in his ears. By the time the singer
had taken his bows, some of the guests were drunk enough to begin providing unintentional
entertainments of their own. Grand Maester Pycelle fell asleep while dancers from the Summer Isles
swirled and spun in robes made of bright feathers and smoky silk. Roundels of elk stuffed with ripe blue
cheese were being brought out when one of Lord Rowan's knights stabbed a Dornishman. The gold
cloaks dragged them both away, one to a cell to rot and the other to get sewn up by Maester Ballabar.
Tyrion was toying with a leche of brawn, spiced with cinnamon, cloves, sugar, and almond milk, when
King Joffrey lurched suddenly to his feet. "Bring on my royal jousters!" he shouted in a voice thick with
wine, clapping his hands together.
My nephew is drunker than I am, Tyrion thought as the gold cloaks opened the great doors at the end of


the hall. From where he sat, he could only see the tops of two striped lances as a pair of riders entered
side by side. A wave of laughter followed them down the center aisle toward the king. They must be
riding ponies, he concluded ... until they came into full view.
The jousters were a pair of dwarfs. One was mounted on an ugly grey dog, long of leg and heavy of
jaw. The other rode an immense spotted sow. Painted wooden armor clattered and clacked as the little
knights bounced up and down in their saddles. Their shields were bigger than they were, and they
wrestled manfully with their lances as they clomped along, swaying this way and that and eliciting gusts of
mirth. one knight was all in gold, with a black stag painted on his shield; the other wore grey
and white, and bore a wolf device. Their mounts were barded likewise. Tyrion glanced along the dais at
all the laughing faces. Joffrey was red and breathless, Tornmen was hooting and hopping up and down in
his seat, Cersei was chuckling politely, and even Lord Tywin looked mildly amused. Of all those at the
high table, only Sansa Stark was not smiling. He could have loved her for that, but if truth be told the
Stark girl's eyes were far away, as if she had not even seen the ludicrous riders loping toward her.
The dwarfs are not to blame, Tyrion decided. When they are done, I shall compliment them and give
them a fat purse of silver. And come the morrow, I will find whoever planned this little diversion and
arrange for a different sort of thanks.
When the dwarfs reined up beneath the dais to salute the king, the wolf knight dropped his shield. As he
leaned over to grab for it, the stag knight lost control of his heavy lance and slammed him across the
back. The wolf knight fell off his pig, and his lance tumbled over and boinked his foe on the head. They
both wound up on the floor in a great tangle. When they rose, both tried to mount the dog. Much
shouting and shoving followed. Finally they regained their saddles, only mounted on each other's steed,
holding the wrong shield and facing backward.
It took some time to sort that out, but in the end they spurred to opposite ends of the hall, and wheeled
about for the tilt. As the lords and ladies guffawed and giggled, the little men came together with a crash
and a clatter, and the wolf knight's lance struck the helm of the stag knight and knocked his head clean
off. It spun through the air spattering blood to land in the lap of Lord Gyles. The headless dwarf careened
around the tables, flailing his arms. Dogs barked, women shrieked, and Moon Boy made a great show of
swaying perilously back and forth on his stilts, until Lord Gyles pulled a dripping red melon out of the
shattered helm, at which point the stag knight poked his face up out of his armor, and another storm of
laughter rocked the hall. The knights waited for it to die, circled around each other trading colorful insults,
and were about to separate for another joust when the dog threw its rider to the floor and mounted the
sow. The huge pig squealed in distress, while the wedding guests squealed with laughter, especially when
the stag knight leapt onto the wolf knight, let down his wooden breeches, and started to pump away
frantically at the other's nether portions.
"I yield, I yield," the dwarf on the bottom screamed. "Good ser, put up your sword!"
"I would, I would, if you'll stop moving the sheath!" the dwarf on the top replied, to the merriment of all.
Joffrey was snorting wine from both nostrils. Gasping, he lurched to his feet, almost knocking over his
tall two-handed chalice. "A champion," he
shouted. "We have a champion!" The hall began to quiet when it was seen that the king was speaking.
The dwarfs untangled, no doubt anticipating the royal thanks. "Not a true champion, though," said Joff.
"A true champion defeats all challengers." The king climbed up on the table. "Who else will challenge our
tiny champion?" With a gleeful smile, he turned toward Tyrion. "Uncle! You'll defend the honor of my


realm, won't you? You can ride the pig!"
The laughter crashed over him like a wave. Tyrion Lannister did not remember rising, nor climbing on his
chair, but he found himself standing on the table. The hall was a torchlit blur of leering faces. He twisted
his face into the most hideous mockery of a smile the Seven Kingdoms had ever seen. "Your Grace," he
called, "I'll ride the pig ... but only if you ride the dog!"
Joff scowled, confused. "Me? I'm no dwarf. Why me?"
Stepped right into the cut, Joff "Why, you're the only man in the hall that I'm certain of defeating!"
He could not have said which was sweeter; the instant of shocked silence, the gale of laughter that
followed, or the look of blind rage on his nephew's face. The dwarf hopped back to the floor well
satisfied, and by the time he looked back Ser Osmund and Ser Meryn were helping Joff climb down as
well. When he noticed Cersei glaring at him, Tyrion blew her a kiss.
It was a relief when the musicians began to play. The tiny jousters led dog and sow from the hall, the
guests returned to their trenchers of brawn, and Tyrion called for another cup of wine. But suddenly he
felt Ser Garlan's hand on his sleeve. "My lord, beware," the knight warned. "The king."
Tyrion turned in his seat. Joffrey was almost upon him, red-faced and staggering, wine slopping over the
rim of the great golden wedding chalice he carried in both hands. "Your Grace," was all he had time to
say before the king upended the chalice over his head. The wine washed down over his face in a red
torrent. it drenched his hair, stung his eyes, burned in his wound, ran down his cheeks, and soaked the
velvet of his new doublet. "How do you like that, Imp?" Joffrey mocked.
Tyrion's eyes were on fire. He dabbed at his face with the back of a sleeve and tried to blink the world
back into clarity. "That was ill done, Your Grace," he heard Ser Garlan say quietly.
"Not at all, Ser Garlan." Tyrion dare not let this grow any uglier than it was, not here, with half the realm
looking on. "Not every king would think to honor a humble subject by serving him from his own royal
chalice. A pity the wine spilled."
"It didn't spill," said Joffrey, too graceless to take the retreat Tyrion offered him. "And I wasn't serving
you, either."
Queen Margaery appeared suddenly at Joffrey's elbow. "My sweet
king," the Tyrell girl entreated, "come, return to your place, there's another singer waiting."
"Alaric of Eysen," said Lady Olenna Tyrell, leaning on her cane and taking no more notice of the
wine-soaked dwarf than her granddaughter had done. "I do so hope he plays us 'The Rains of
Castamere.' It has been an hour, I've forgotten how it goes."
"Ser Addam has a toast he wants to make as well," said Margaery. "Your Grace, please."
"I have no wine," Joffrey declared. "How can I drink a toast if I have no wine? Uncle Imp, you can serve
me. Since you won't joust you'll be my cupbearer."
"I would be most honored."


"It's not meant to be an honor!" Joffrey screamed. "Bend down and pick up my chalice." Tyrion did as
he was bid, but as he reached for the handle Joff kicked the chalice through his legs. "Pick it up! Are you
as clumsy as you are ugly?" He had to crawl under the table to find the thing. "Good, now fill it with
wine." He claimed a flagon from a serving girl and filled the goblet three-quarters full. "No, on your
knees, dwarf." Kneeling, Tyrion raised up the heavy cup, wondering if he was about to get a second
bath. But Joffrey took the wedding chalice one-handed, drank deep, and set it on the table. "You can get
up now, Uncle."
His legs cramped as he tried to rise, and almost spilled him again. Tyrion had to grab hold of a chair to
steady himself. Ser Garlan lent him a hand. Joffrey laughed, and Cersei as well. Then others. He could
not see who, but he heard them.
"Your Grace." Lord Tywin's voice was impeccably correct. "They are bringing in the pie. Your sword is
needed."
"The pie?" Joffrey took his queen by the hand. "Come, my lady, it's the pie."
The guests stood, shouting and applauding and smashing their wine cups together as the great pie made
its slow way down the length of the hall, wheeled along by a half-dozen beaming cooks. Two yards
across it was, crusty and golden brown, and they could hear squeaks and thumpings coming from inside
it.
Tyrion pulled himself back into his chair. All he needed now was for a dove to shit on him and his day
would be complete. The wine had soaked through his doublet and smallclothes, and he could feel the
wetness against his skin. He ought to change, but no one was permitted to leave the feast until the time
came for the bedding ceremony. That was still a good twenty or thirty dishes off, he judged.
King Joffrey and his queen met the pie below the dais. As Joff drew his sword, Margaery laid a hand on
his arm to restrain him. "Widow's Wail was not meant for slicing pies."
"True." Joffrey lifted his voice. "Ser Ilyn, your sword!"
From the shadows at the back of the hall, Ser Ilyn Payne appeared. The specter at the feast, thought
Tyrion as he watched the King's justice stride forward, gaunt and grim. He had been too young to have
known Ser Ilyn before he'd lost his tongue. He would have been a different man in those days, but now
the silence is as much a part of him as those hollow eyes, that rusty chainmail shirt, and the greatsword on
his back.
Ser Ilyn bowed before the king and queen, reached back over his shoulder, and drew forth six feet of
ornate silver bright with runes. He knelt to offer the huge blade to Joffrey, hilt first; points of red fire
winked from ruby eyes on the pommel, a chunk of dragonglass carved in the shape of a grinning skull.
Sansa stirred in her seat. "What sword is that?"
Tyrion's eyes still stung from the wine. He blinked and looked again. Ser Ilyn's greatsword was as long
and wide as Ice, but it was too silverybright; Valyrian steel had a darkness to it, a smokiness in its soul.
Sansa clutched his arm. "What has Ser Ilyn done with my father's sword?"
I should have sent Ice back to Robb Stark, Tyrion thought. He glanced at his father, but Lord Tywin
was watching the king.


Joffrey and Margaery joined hands to lift the greatsword and swung it down together in a silvery arc.
When the piecrust broke, the doves burst forth in a swirl of white feathers, scattering in every direction,
flapping for the windows and the rafters. A roar of delight went up from the benches, and the fiddlers and
pipers in the gallery began to play a sprightly tune. Joff took his bride in his arms, and whirled her around
merrily.
A serving man placed a slice of hot pigeon pie in front of Tyrion and covered it with a spoon of lemon
cream. The pigeons were well and truly cooked in this pie, but he found them no more appetizing than the
white ones fluttering about the hall. Sansa was not eating either. "You're deathly pale, my lady," Tyrion
said. "You need a breath of cool air, and I need a fresh doublet." He stood and offered her his hand.
"Come."
But before they could make their retreat, Joffrey was back. "Uncle, where are you going? You're my
cupbearer, remember?"
"I need to change into fresh garb, Your Grace. May I have your leave?"
"No. I like the look of you this way. Serve me my wine."
The king's chalice was on the table where he'd left it. Tyrion had to climb back onto his chair to reach it.
Joff yanked it from his hands and drank long and deep, his throat working as the wine ran purple down
his chin. "My lord," Margaery said, "we should return to our places. Lord Buckler wants to toast us."
"My uncle hasn't eaten his pigeon pie." Holding the chalice onehanded, Joff jammed his other into
Tyrion's pie. "It's ill luck not to eat the pie," he scolded as he filled his mouth with hot spiced pigeon.
"See,
it's good." Spitting out flakes of crust, he coughed and helped himself to another fistful. "Dry, though.
Needs washing down." Joff took a swallow of wine and coughed again, more violently. "I want to see,
kof, see you ride that, kof kof, pig, Uncle. I want. .." His words broke up in a fit of coughing.
Margaery looked at him with concern. "Your Grace?"
"It's, kof, the pie, noth - kof, pie." Joff took another drink, or tried to, but all the wine came spewing
back out when another spate of coughing doubled him over. His face was turning red. "I, kof, I can't, kof
kof kof kof . . . " The chalice slipped from his hand and dark red wine went running across the dais.
"He's choking," Queen Margaery gasped.
Her grandmother moved to her side. "Help the poor boy!" the Queen of Thorns screeched, in a voice
ten times her size. "Dolts! Will you all stand about gaping? Help your king!"
Ser Garlan shoved Tyrion aside and began to pound Joffrey on the back. Ser Osmund Kettleblack
ripped open the king's collar. A fearful high thin sound emerged from the boy's throat, the sound of a man
trying to suck a river through a reed; then it stopped, and that was more terrible still. "Turn him over!"
Mace Tyrell bellowed at everyone and no one. "Turn him over, shake him by his heels!" A different voice
was calling, "Water, give him some water!" The High Septon began to pray loudly. Grand Maester
Pycelle shouted for someone to help him back to his chambers, to fetch his potions. Joffrey began to
claw at his throat, his nails tearing bloody gouges in the flesh. Beneath the skin, the muscles stood out
hard as stone. Prince Tornmen was screaming and crying.


He is going to die, Tyrion realized. He felt curiously calm, though pandemonium raged all about him.
They were pounding Joff on the back again, but his face was only growing darker. Dogs were barking,
children were wailing, men were shouting useless advice at each other. Half the wedding guests were on
their feet, some shoving at each other for a better view, others rushing for the doors in their haste to get
away.
Ser Meryn pried the king's mouth open to jam a spoon down his throat. As he did, the boy's eyes met
Tyrion's. He has Jaime's eyes. Only he had never seen Jaime look so scared. The boy's only thirteen.
Joffrey was making a dry clacking noise, trying to speak. His eyes bulged white with terror, and he lifted
a hand ... reaching for his uncle, or pointing ... Is he begging my forgiveness, or does he think I can save
him? "Noooo," Cersei wailed, "Father help him, someone help him, my son, my son..."
Tyrion found himself thinking of Robb Stark. My own wedding is looking much better in hindsight. He
looked to see how Sansa was taking this, but there was so much confusion in the hall that he could not
find her. But his eyes fell on the wedding chalice, forgotten on the floor. He
went and scooped it up. There was still a half-inch of deep purple wine in the bottom of it. Tyrion
considered it a moment, then poured it on the floor.
Margaery Tyrell was weeping in her grandmother's arms as the old lady said, "Be brave, be brave."
Most of the musicians had fled, but one last flutist in the gallery was blowing a dirge. In the rear of the
throne room scuffling had broken out around the doors, and the guests were trampling on each other. Ser
Addam's gold cloaks moved in to restore order. Guests were rushing headlong out into the night, some
weeping, some stumbling and retching, others white with fear. It occurred to Tyrion belatedly that it might
be wise to leave himself.
When he heard Cersei's scream, he knew that it was over.
I should leave. Now. Instead he waddled toward her.
His sister sat in a puddle of wine, cradling her son's body. Her gown was tom and stained, her face
white as chalk. A thin black dog crept up beside her, sniffing at Joffrey's corpse. "The boy is gone,
Cersei," Lord Tywin said. He put his gloved hand on his daughter's shoulder as one of his guardsmen
shooed away the dog. "Unhand him now. Let him go." She did not hear. It took two Kingsguard to pry
loose her fingers, so the body of King Joffrey Baratheon could slide limp and lifeless to the floor.
The High Septon knelt beside him. "Father Above, judge our good King Joffrey justly," he intoned,
beginning the prayer for the dead. Margaery Tyrell began to sob, and Tyrion heard her mother Lady
Alerie saying, "He choked, sweetling. He choked on the pie. It was naught to do with you. He choked.
We all saw."
"He did not choke." Cersei's voice was sharp as Ser Ilyn's sword. "My son was poisoned." She looked
to the white knights standing helplessly around her. "Kingsguard, do your duty."
"My lady?" said Ser Loras Tyrell, uncertain.
"Arrest my brother," she commanded him. "He did this, the dwarf. Him and his little wife. They killed my
son. Your king. Take them! Take them both!"


Chapter 61
SANSA
Far across the city, a bell began to toll.
Sansa felt as though she were in a dream. "Joffrey is dead," she told the trees, to see if that would wake
her.
He had not been dead when she left the throne room. He had been on his knees, though, clawing at his
throat, tearing at his own skin as he fought to breathe. The sight of it had been too terrible to watch, and
she had turned and fled, sobbing. Lady Tanda had been fleeing as well. "You have a good heart, my
lady," she said to Sansa. "Not every maid would weep so for a man who set her aside and wed her to a
dwarf."
A good heart. I have a good heart. Hysterical laughter rose up her gullet, but Sansa choked it back
down. The bells were ringing, slow and mournful. Ringing, ringing, ringing. They had rung for King Robert
the same way. Joffrey was dead, he was dead, he was dead, dead, dead. Why was she crying, when she
wanted to dance? Were they tears of joy?
She found her clothes where she had hidden them, the night before last. With no maids to help her, it
took her longer than it should have to undo the laces of her gown. Her hands were strangely clumsy,
though she was not as frightened as she ought to have been. "The gods are cruel to take him so young
and handsome, at his own wedding feast," Lady Tanda had said to her.
The gods are just, thought Sansa. Robb had died at a wedding feast as well. It was Robb she wept for.
Him and Margaery. Poor Margaery, twice wed and twice widowed. Sansa slid her arm from a sleeve,
pushed down the gown, and wriggled out of it. She balled it up and shoved it into the bole of an oak,
shook out the clothing she had hidden there. Dress
warmly, Ser Dontos had told her, and dress dark. She had no blacks, so she chose a dress of thick
brown wool. The bodice was decorated with freshwater pearls, though. The cloak will cover them. The
cloak was a deep green, with a large hood. She slipped the dress over her head, and donned the cloak,
though she left the hood down for the moment. There were shoes as well, simple and sturdy, with flat
heels and square toes. The gods heard my prayer, she thought. She felt so numb and dreamy. My skin
has turned to porcelain, to ivory, to steel. Her hands moved stiffly, awkwardly, as if they had never let
down her hair before. For a moment she wished Shae was there, to help her with the net.
When she pulled it free, her long auburn hair cascaded down her back and across her shoulders. The
web of spun silver hung from her fingers, the fine metal glimmering softly, the stones black in the
moonlight. Black amethysts from Asshai. One of them was missing. Sansa lifted the net for a closer look.
There was a dark smudge in the silver socket where the stone had fallen out.
A sudden terror filled her. Her heart hammered against her ribs, and for an instant she held her breath.
Why am I so scared, it's only an amethyst, a black amethyst from Asshai, no more than that. It must have
been loose in the setting, that's all. It was loose and it fell out, and now it's lying somewhere in the throne
room, or in the yard, unless ...
Ser Dontos had said the hair net was magic, that it would take her home. He told her she must wear it


tonight at Joffrey's wedding feast. The silver wire stretched tight across her knuckles. Her thumb rubbed
back and forth against the hole where the stone had been. She tried to stop, but her fingers were not her
own. Her thumb was drawn to the hole as the tongue is drawn to a missing tooth. What kind of magic?
The king was dead, the cruel king who had been her gallant prince a thousand years ago. If Dontos had
lied about the hair net, had he lied about the rest as well? What if he never comes? What if there is no
ship, no boat on the river, no escape? What would happen to her then?
She heard a faint rustle of leaves, and stuffed the silver hair net down deep in the pocket of her cloak.
"Who's there?" she cried. "Who is it?" The godswood was dim and dark, and the bells were ringing Joff
into his grave.
"Me." He staggered out from under the trees, reeling drunk. He caught her arm to steady himself. "Sweet
jonquil, I've come. Your Florian has come, don't be afraid."
Sansa pulled away from his touch. "You said I must wear the hair net. The silver net with ... what sort of
stones are those?"
"Amethysts. Black amethysts from Asshai, my lady."
"They're no amethysts. Are they? Are they? You lied."
"Black amethysts," he swore. "There was magic in them."
"There was murder in them!"
"Softly, my lady, softly. No murder. He choked on his pigeon pie." Dontos chortled. "Oh, tasty tasty pie.
Silver and stones, that's all it was, silver and stone and magic."
The bells were tolling, and the wind was making a noise like he had made as he tried to suck a breath of
air. "You poisoned him. You did. You took a stone from my hair..."
"Hush, you'll be the death of us. I did nothing. Come, we must away, they'll search for you. Your
husband's been arrested."
"Tyrion?" she said, shocked.
"Do you have another husband? The Imp, the dwarf uncle, she thinks he did it." He grabbed her hand
and pulled at her. "This way, we must away, quickly now, have no fear."
Sansa followed unresisting. I could never abide the weeping of women, Joff once said, but his mother
was the only woman weeping now. In Old Nan's stories the grumkins crafted magic things that could
make a wish come true. Did I wish him dead? she wondered, before she remembered that she was too
old to believe in grumkins. "Tyrion poisoned him?" Her dwarf husband had hated his nephew, she knew.
Could he truly have killed him? Did he know about my hair net, about the black amethysts? He brought
Joff wine. How could you make someone choke by putting an amethyst in their wine? If Tyrion did it,
they will think I was part of it as well, she realized with a start of fear. How not? They were man and
wife, and Joff had killed her father and mocked her with her brother's death. One flesh, one heart, one
soul.
"Be quiet now, my sweetling," said Dontos. "Outside the godswood, we must make no sound. Pull up
your hood and hide your face." Sansa nodded, and did as he said.


He was so drunk that sometimes Sansa had to lend him her arm to keep him from falling. The bells were
ringing out across the city, more and more of them joining in. She kept her head down and stayed in the
shadows, close behind Dontos. While descending the serpentine steps he stumbled to his knees and
retched. My poor Florian, she thought, as he wiped his mouth with a floppy sleeve. Dress dark, he'd
said, yet under his brown hooded cloak he was wearing his old surcoat; red and pink horizontal stripes
beneath a black chief bearing three gold crowns, the arms of House Hollard. "Why are you wearing your
surcoat? Joff decreed it was death if you were caught dressed as a knight again, he ... oh..." Nothing Joff
had decreed mattered any longer.
"I wanted to be a knight. For this, at least." Dontos lurched back to his feet and took her arm. "Come.
Be quiet now, no questions."
They continued down the serpentine and across a small sunken
courtyard. Ser Dontos shoved open a heavy door and lit a taper. They were inside a long gallery. Along
the walls stood empty suits of armor, dark and dusty, their helms crested with rows of scales that
continued down their backs. As they hurried past, the taper's light made the shadows of each scale
stretch and twist. The hollow knights are turning into dragons, she thought.
One more stair took them to an oaken door banded with iron. "Be strong now, my jonquil, you are
almost there." When Dontos lifted the bar and pulled open the door, Sansa felt a cold breeze on her face,
She passed through twelve feet of wall, and then she was outside the castle, standing at the top of the
cliff. Below was the river, above the sky, and one was as black as the other.
"We must climb down," Ser Dontos said. "At the bottom, a man is waiting to row us out to the ship."
"I'll fall." Bran had fallen, and he had loved to climb.
"No you won't. There's a sort of ladder, a secret ladder, carved into the stone. Here, you can feel it, my
lady." He got down on his knees with her and made her lean over the edge of the cliff, groping with her
fingers until she found the handhold cut into the face of the bluff. "Almost as good as rungs."
Even so, it was a long way down. "I can't."
"You must."
"Isn't there another way?"
"This is the way. It won't be so hard for a strong young girl like you. Hold on tight and never look down
and you'll be at the bottom in no time at all." His eyes were shiny. "Your poor Florian is fat and old and
drunk, I'm the one should be afraid. I used to fall off my horse, don't you remember? That was how we
began. I was drunk and fell off my horse and Joffrey wanted my fool head, but you saved me. You saved
me, sweetling."
He's weeping, she realized. "And now you have saved me."
"Only if you go. If not, I have killed us both."
It was him, she thought. He killed loffrey. She had to go, for him as much as for herself. "You go first,
ser." If he did fall, she did not want him falling down on her head and knocking both of them off the cliff.


"As you wish, my lady." He gave her a sloppy kiss and swung his legs clumsily over the precipice,
kicking about until he found a foothold. "Let me get down a bit, and come after. You will come now?
You must swear it."
"I'll come," she promised.
Ser Dontos disappeared. She could hear him huffing and puffing as he began the descent. Sansa listened
to the tolling of the bell, counting each ring. At ten, gingerly, she eased herself over the edge of the cliff,
poking
with her toes until they found a place to rest. The castle walls loomed large above her, and for a moment
she wanted nothing so much as to pull herself up and run back to her warm rooms in the Kitchen Keep.
Be brave, she told herself. Be brave, like a lady in a song.
Sansa dared not look down. She kept her eyes on the face of the cliff, making certain of each step
before reaching for the next. The stone was rough and cold. Sometimes she could feel her fingers
slipping, and the handholds were not as evenly spaced as she would have liked. The bells would not stop
ringing. Before she was halfway down her arms were trembling and she knew that she was going to fall.
One more step, she told herself, one more step. She had to keep moving. If she stopped, she would
never start again, and dawn would find her still clinging to the cliff, frozen in fear. One more step, and one
more step.
The ground took her by surprise. She stumbled and fell, her heart pounding. When she rolled onto her
back and stared up at from where she had come, her head swam dizzily and her fingers clawed at the
dirt. I did it. I did it, I didn't fall, I made the climb and now I'm going home.
Ser Dontos pulled her back onto her feet. "This way. Quiet now, quiet, quiet." He stayed close to the
shadows that lay black and thick beneath the cliffs. Thankfully they did not have to go far. Fifty yards
downriver, a man sat in a small skiff, half-hidden by the remains of a great galley that had gone aground
there and burned. Dontos limped up to him, puffing. "Oswell?"
"No names," the man said. "In the boat." He sat hunched over his oars, an old man, tall and gangling,
with long white hair and a great hooked nose, with eyes shaded by a cowl. "Get in, be quick about it," he
muttered. "We need to be away."
When both of them were safe aboard, the cowled man slid the blades into the water and put his back
into the oars, rowing them out toward the channel. Behind them the bells were still tolling the boy king's
death. They had the dark river all to themselves.
With slow, steady, rhythmic strokes, they threaded their way downstream, sliding above the sunken
galleys, past broken masts, burned hulls, and torn sails. The oarlocks had been muffled, so they moved
almost soundlessly. A mist was rising over the water. Sansa saw the embattled ramparts of one of the
Imp's winch towers looming above, but the great chain had been lowered, and they rowed unimpeded
past the spot where a thousand men had burned. The shore fell away, the fog grew thicker, the sound of
the bells began to fade. Finally even the lights were gone, lost somewhere behind them. They were out in
Blackwater Bay, and the world shrank to dark water, blowing mist, and their silent companion stooped
over the oars. "How far must we go?" she asked.
"No talk." The oarsman was old, but stronger than he looked, and his


voice was fierce. There was something oddly familiar about his face, though Sansa could not say what it
was.
"Not far." Ser Dontos took her hand in his own and rubbed it gently. "Your friend is near, waiting for
you."
"No talk!" the oarsman growled again. "Sound carries over water, Ser Fool."
Abashed, Sansa bit her lip and huddled down in silence. The rest was rowing, rowing, rowing.
The eastern sky was vague with the first hint of dawn when Sansa finally saw a ghostly shape in the
darkness ahead; a trading galley, her sails furled, moving slowly on a single bank of oars. As they drew
closer, she saw the ship's figurehead, a merman with a golden crown blowing on a great seashell horn.
She heard a voice cry out, and the galley swung slowly about.
As they came alongside, the galley dropped a rope ladder over the rail. The rower shipped the oars and
helped Sansa to her feet. "Up now. Go on, girl, I got you." Sansa thanked him for his kindness, but
received no answer but a grunt. It was much easier going up the rope ladder than it had been coming
down the cliff. The oarsman Oswell followed close behind her, while Ser Dontos remained in the boat.
Two sailors were waiting by the rail to help her onto the deck. Sansa was trembling. "She's cold," she
heard someone say. He took off his cloak and put it around her shoulders. "There, is that better, my
lady? Rest easy, the worst is past and done."
She knew the voice. But he's in the Vale, she thought. Ser Lothor Brune stood beside him with a torch.
"Lord Petyr," Dontos called from the boat. "I must needs row back, before they think to look for me."
Petyr Baelish put a hand on the rail. "But first you'll want your payment. Ten thousand dragons, was it?"
"Ten thousand." Dontos rubbed his mouth with the back of his hand. "As you promised, my lord.'/
"Ser Lothor, the reward."
Lothor Brune dipped his torch. Three men stepped to the gunwale, raised crossbows, fired. One bolt
took Dontos in the chest as he looked up, punching through the left crown on his surcoat. The others
ripped into throat and belly. It happened so quickly neither Dontos nor Sansa had time to cry out. When
it was done, Lothor Brune tossed the torch down on top of the corpse. The little boat was blazing
fiercely as the galley moved away.
"You killed him." Clutching the rail, Sansa turned away and retched. Had she escaped the Lannisters to
tumble into worse?
"My lady," Littlefinger murmured, "your grief is wasted on such a man as that. He was a sot, and no
man's friend."
"But he saved me."
"He sold you for a promise of ten thousand dragons. Your disappearance will make them suspect you in
Joffrey's death. The gold cloaks will hunt, and the eunuch will jingle his purse. Dontos ... well, you heard
him. He sold you for gold, and when he'd drunk it up he would have sold you again. A bag of dragons


buys a man's silence for a while, but a well-placed quarrel buys it forever." He smiled sadly. "All he did
he did at my behest. I dared not befriend you openly. When I heard how you saved his life at Joff 's
tourney, I knew he would be the perfect catspaw.
Sansa felt sick. "He said he was my Florian."
"Do you perchance recall what I said to you that day your father sat the Iron Throne?"
The moment came back to her vividly. "You told me that life was not a song. That I would learn that one
day, to my sorrow." She felt tears in her eyes, but whether she wept for Ser Dontos Hollard, for Joff, for
Tyrion, or for herself, Sansa could not say. "Is it all lies, forever and ever, everyone and everything?"
"Almost everyone. Save you and 1, of course." He smiled. "Come to the godswood tonight if you want
to go home."
"The note ... it was you?"
,'It had to be the godswood. No other place in the Red Keep is safe from the eunuch's little birds ... or
little rats, as I call them. There are trees in the godswood instead of walls. Sky above instead of ceiling.
Roots and dirt and rock in place of floor. The rats have no place to scurry. Rats need to hide, lest men
skewer them with swords." Lord Petyr took her arm. "Let me show you to your cabin. You have had a
long and trying day, I know. You must be weary."
Already the little boat was no more than a swirl of smoke and fire behind them, almost lost in the
immensity of the dawn sea. There was no going back; her only road was forward. "Very weary," she
admitted.
As he led her below, he said, "Tell me of the feast. The queen took such pains. The singers, the jugglers,
the dancing bear ... did your little lord husband enjoy my jousting dwarfs?"
"Yours? "
"I had to send to Braavos for them and hide them away in a brothel until the wedding. The expense was
exceeded only by the bother. It is surprisingly difficult to hide a dwarf, and Joffrey . . . you can lead a
king to water, but with Joff one had to splash it about before he realized he could drink it. When I told
him about my little surprise, His Grace said, 'Why would I want some ugly dwarfs at my feast? I hate
dwarfs.' I had to take him by the shoulder and whisper, 'Not as much as your uncle will., "
The deck rocked beneath her feet, and Sansa felt as if the world itself
had grown unsteady. "They think Tyrion poisoned Joffrey. Ser Dontos said they seized him."
Littlefinger smiled. "Widowhood will become you, Sansa."
The thought made her tummy flutter. She might never need to share a bed with Tyrion again. That was
what she'd wanted ... wasn't it?
The cabin was low and cramped, but a featherbed had been laid upon the narrow sleeping shelf to make
it more comfortable, and thick furs piled atop it. "It will be snug, I know, but you shouldn't be too
uncomfortable." Littlefinger pointed out a cedar chest under the porthole. "You'll find fresh garb within.
Dresses, smallclothes, warm stockings, a cloak. Wool and linen only, I fear. Unworthy of a maid so


beautiful, but they'll serve to keep you dry and clean until we can find you something finer."
He had this all prepared for me. "My lord, I ... I do not understand ... Joffrey gave you Harrenhal, made
you Lord Paramount of the Trident ... why..."
"Why should I wish him dead?" Littlefinger shrugged. "I had no motive. Besides, I am a thousand leagues
away in the Vale. Always keep your foes confused. If they are never certain who you are or what you
want, they cannot know what you are like to do next. Sometimes the best way to baffle them is to make
moves that have no purpose, or even seem to work against you. Remember that, Sansa, when you come
to play the game."
"What ... what game?"
"The only game. The game of thrones." He brushed back a strand of her hair. "You are old enough to
know that your mother and I were more than friends. There was a time when Cat was all I wanted in this
world. I dared to dream of the life we might make and the children she would give me ... but she was a
daughter of Riverrun, and Hoster Tully. Family, Duty, Honor, Sansa. Family, Duty, Honor meant I could
never have her hand. But she gave me something finer, a gift a woman can give but once. How could I
turn my back upon her daughter? In a better world, you might have been mine, not Eddard Stark's. My
loyal loving daughter ... Put Joffrey from your mind, sweetling. Dontos, Tyrion, all of them. They will
never trouble you again. You are safe now, that's all that matters. You are safe with me, and sailing
home."
Chapter 62
JAIME
The king is dead, they told him, never knowing that Joffrey was his son as well as his sovereign.
"The Imp opened his throat with a dagger," a costermonger declared at the roadside inn where they
spent the night. "He drank his blood from a big gold chalice." The man did not recognize the bearded
one-handed knight with the big bat on his shield, no more than any of them, so he said things he might
otherwise have swallowed, had he known who was listening.
"It was poison did the deed," the innkeep insisted. "The boy's face turned black as a plum."
"May the Father judge him justly," murmured a septon.
"The dwarf's wife did the murder with him," swore an archer in Lord Rowan's livery. "Afterward, she
vanished from the hall in a puff of brimstone, and a ghostly direwolf was seen prowling the Red Keep,
blood dripping from his jaws."
Jaime sat silent through it all, letting the words wash over him, a horn of ale forgotten in his one good
hand. loffrey. My blood. My firstborn. My son. He tried to bring the boy's face to mind, but his features
kept turning into Cersei's. She will be in mourning, her hair in disarray and her eyes red from crying, her
mouth trembling as she tries to speak. She will cry again when she sees me, though she'll fight the tears.
His sister seldom wept but when she was with him. She could not stand for others to think her weak.


Only to her twin did she show her wounds. She will look to me for comfort and revenge.
They rode hard the next day, at Jaime's insistence. His son was dead, and his sister needed him.
When he saw the city before him, its watchtowers dark against the gathering dusk, Jaime Lannister
cantered up to Steelshanks Walton, behind Nage with the peace banner.
"What's that awful stink?" the northman complained.
Death, thought Jaime, but he said, "Smoke, sweat, and shit. King's Landing, in short. If you have a good
nose you can smell the treachery too. You've never smelled a city before?"
"I smelled White Harbor. It never stank like this."
"White Harbor is to King's Landing as my brother Tyrion is to Ser Gregor Clegane."
Nage led them up a low hill, the seven-tailed peace banner lifting and turning in the wind, the polished
seven-pointed star shining bright upon its staff. He would see Cersei soon, and Tyrion, and their father.
Could my brother truly have killed the boy? Jaime found that hard to believe.
He was curiously calm. Men were supposed to go mad with grief when their children died, he knew.
They were supposed to tear their hair out by the roots, to curse the gods and swear red vengeance. So
why was it that he felt so little? The boy lived and died believing Robert Baratheon his sire.
Jaime had seen him born, that was true, though more for Cersei than the child. But he had never held
him. "How would it look?" his sister warned him when the women finally left them. "Bad enough Joff
looks like you without you mooning over him." Jaime yielded with hardly a fight. The boy had been a
squalling pink thing who demanded too much of Cersei's time, Cersei's love, and Cersei's breasts. Robert
was welcome to him.
And now he's dead. He pictured Joff lying still and cold with a face black from poison, and still felt
nothing. Perhaps he was the monster they claimed. if the Father Above came down to offer him back his
son or his hand, Jaime knew which he would choose. He had a second son, after all, and seed enough
for many more. If Cersei wants another child I'll give her one ... and this time I'll hold him, and the Others
take those who do not like it. Robert was rotting in his grave, and Jaime was sick of lies.
He turned abruptly and galloped back to find Brienne. Gods know why I bother. She is the least
companionable creature I've ever had the misfortune to meet. The wench rode well behind and a few feet
off to the side, as if to proclaim that she was no part of them. They had found men's garb for her along
the way; a tunic here, a mantle there, a pair of breeches and a cowled cloak, even an old iron
breastplate. She looked more comfortable dressed as a man, but nothing would ever make her look
handsome. Nor happy. Once out of Harrenhal, her usual pighead
stubbornness had soon reasserted itself. "I want my arms and armor back," she had insisted. "Oh, by all
means, let us have you back in steel," Jaime replied. "A helm, especially. We'll all be happier if you keep
your mouth shut and your visor down."
That much Brienne could do, but her sullen silences soon began to fray his good humor almost as much
as Qyburn's endless attempts to be ingratiating. I never thought I would find myself missing the company
of Cleos Frey, gods help me. He was beginning to wish he had left her for the bear after all.


"King's Landing," Jaime announced when he found her. "Our journey's done, my lady. You've kept your
vow, and delivered me to King's Landing. All but a few fingers and a hand."
Brienne's eyes were listless. "That was only half my vow. I told Lady Catelyn I would bring her back her
daughters. Or Sansa, at the least. And now..."
She never met Robb Stark, yet her grief for him runs deeper than mine for Joff. Or perhaps it was Lady
Catelyn she mourned. They had been at Brindlewood when they had that news, from a red-faced tub of
a knight named Ser Bertram Beesbury, whose arms were three beehives on a field striped black and
yellow. A troop of Lord Piper's men had passed through Brindlewood only yesterday, Beesbury told
them, rushing to King's Landing beneath a peace banner of their own. "With the Young Wolf dead Piper
saw no point to fighting on. His son is captive at the Twins." Brienne gaped like a cow about to choke on
her cud, so it fell to Jaime to draw out the tale of the Red Wedding.
"Every great lord has unruly bannermen who envy him his place," he told her afterward. "My father had
the Reynes and Tarbecks, the Tyrells have the Florents, Hoster Tully had Walder Frey. Only strength
keeps such men in their place. The moment they smell weakness ... during the Age of Heroes, the
Boltons used to flay the Starks and wear their skins as cloaks." She looked so miserable that Jaime
almost found himself wanting to comfort her.
Since that day Brienne had been like one half-dead. Even calling her "wench" failed to provoke any
response. The strength is gone from her. The woman had dropped a rock on Robin Ryger, battled a bear
with a tourney sword, bitten off Vargo Float's ear, and fought Jaime to exhaustion ... but she was broken
now, done. "I'll speak to my father about returning you to Tarth, if it please you," he told her. "Or if you
would rather stay, I could perchance find some place for you at court."
"As a lady companion to the queen?" she said dully.
Jaime remembered the sight of her in that pink satin gown, and tried not to imagine what his sister might
say of such a companion. "Perhaps a post with the City Watch..."
"I will not serve with oathbreakers and murderers."
Then why did you ever bother putting on a sword? he might have said, but he bit back the words. "As
you will, Brienne." One-handed, he wheeled his horse about and left her.
The Gate of the Gods was open when they reached it, but two dozen wayns were lined up along the
roadside, loaded with casks of cider, barrels of apples, bales of hay, and some of the biggest pumpkins
Jaime had ever seen. Almost every wagon had its guards; men-at-arms wearing the badges of small
lordlings, sellswords in mail and boiled leather, sometimes only a pink-cheeked farmer's son clutching a
homemade spear with a firehardened point. Jaime smiled at them all as he trotted past. At the gate, the
gold cloaks were collecting coin from each driver before waving the wagons through. "What's this?"
Steelshanks demanded.
"They got to pay for the right to sell inside the city. By command of the King's Hand and the master of
coin."
Jaime looked at the long line of wayns, carts, and laden horses. "Yet they still line up to pay?"
"There's good coin to be made here now that the fighting's done," the miller in the nearest wagon told
them cheerfully. "It's the Lannisters hold the city now, old Lord Tywin of the Rock. They say he shits


silver."
"Gold," Jaime corrected dryly. "And Littlefinger mints the stuff from goldenrod, I vow."
"The Imp is master of coin now," said the captain of the gate. "Or was, till they arrested him for
murdering the king." The man looked the northmen over suspiciously. "Who are you lot?"
"Lord Bolton's men, come to see the King's Hand."
The captain glanced at Nage with his peace banner. "Come to bend the knee, you mean. You're not the
first. Go straight up to the castle, and see you make no trouble." He waved them through and turned
back to the wagons.
If King's Landing mourned its dead boy king, Jaime would never have known it. On the Street of Seeds
a begging brother in threadbare robes was praying loudly for Joffrey's soul, but the passersby paid him
no more heed than they would a loose shutter banging in the wind. Elsewhere milled the usual crowds;
gold cloaks in their black mail, bakers' boys selling tarts and breads and hot pies, whores leaning out of
windows with their bodices half unlaced, gutters redolent of nightsoil. They passed five men trying to drag
a dead horse from the mouth of an alley, and elsewhere a juggler spinning knives through the air to delight
a throng of drunken Tyrell soldiers and small children.
Riding down familiar streets with two hundred northmen, a chainless maester, and an ugly freak of a
woman at his side, Jaime found he scarcely drew a second look. He did not know whether he ought to
be amused or
annoyed. "They do not know me," he said to Steelshanks as they rode through Cobbler's Square.
"Your face is changed, and your arms as well," the northman said, Iiand they have a new Kingslayer
now."
The gates to the Red Keep were open, but a dozen gold cloaks armed with pikes barred the way. They
lowered their points as Steelshanks came trotting up, but Jaime recognized the white knight commanding
them. "Ser Meryn."
Ser Meryn Trant's droopy eyes went wide. "Ser Jaime?"
"How nice to be remembered. Move these men aside."
it had been a long time since anyone had leapt to obey him quite so fast. Jaime had forgotten how well
he liked it.
They found two more Kingsguard in the outer ward; two who had not worn white cloaks when Jaime
last served here. How like Cersei to name me Lord Commander and then choose my colleagues without
consulting me. "Someone has given me two new brothers, I see," he said as he dismounted.
"We have that honor, ser." The Knight of Flowers shone so fine and pure in his white scales and silk that
Jaime felt a tattered and tawdry thing by contrast.
Jaime turned to Meryn Trant. "Ser, you've been remiss in teaching our new brothers their duties."
"What duties?" said Meryn Trant defensively.


"Keeping the king alive. How many monarchs have you lost since I left the city? Two, is it? "
Then Ser Balon saw the stump. "Your hand..."
Jaime made himself smile. "I fight with my left now. It makes for more of a contest. Where will I find my
lord father?"
"In the solar with Lord Tyrell and Prince Oberyn."
Mace Tyrell and the Red Viper breaking bread together? Strange and stranger. "Is the queen with them
as well?"
"No, my lord," Ser Balon answered. "You'll find her in the sept, praying over King Joff -
"You!"
The last of the northmen had dismounted, Jaime saw, and now Loras Tyrell had seen Brienne.
"Ser Loras." She stood stupidly, holding her bridle.
Loras Tyrell strode toward her. "Why?" he said. "You will tell me why. He treated you kindly, gave you
a rainbow cloak. Why would you kill him?"
"I never did. I would have died for him."
"You will." Ser Loras drew his longsword.
"It was not me."
"Emmon Cuy swore it was, with his dying breath."
"He was outside the tent, he never saw - "
"There was no one in the tent but you and Lady Stark. Do you claim that old woman could cut through
hardened steel?"
"There was a shadow I know how mad it sounds, but ... I was helping Renly into his armor, and the
candles blew out and there was blood everywhere. It was Stannis, Lady Catelyn said. His ... his shadow.
I had no part in it, on my honor..."
"You have no honor. Draw your sword. I won't have it said that I slew you while your hand was empty."
Jaime stepped between them. "Put the sword away, ser."
Ser Loras edged around him. "Are you a craven as well as a killer, Brienne? Is that why you ran, with
his blood on your hands? Draw your sword, woman!"
"Best hope she doesn't." Jaime blocked his path again. "Or it's like to be your corpse we carry out. The
wench is as strong as Gregor Clegane, though not so pretty."


"This is no concern of yours." Ser Loras shoved him aside.
Jaime grabbed the boy with his good hand and yanked him around. "I am the Lord Commander of the
Kingsguard, you arrogant pup. Your commander, so long as you wear that white cloak. Now sheathe
your bloody sword, or I'll take it from you and shove it up some place even Renly never found."
The boy hesitated half a heartbeat, long enough for Ser Balon Swann to say, "Do as the Lord
Commander says, Loras." Some of the gold cloaks drew their steel then, and that made some Dreadfort
men do the same. Splendid, thought Jaime, no sooner do I climb down off my horse than we have a
bloodbath in the yard.
Ser Loras Tyrell slammed his sword back into its sheath.
"That wasn't so difficult, was it?"
"I want her arrested." Ser Loras pointed. "Lady Brienne, I charge you with the murder of Lord Renly
Baratheon."
"For what it's worth," said Jaime, "the wench does have honor. More than I have seen from you. And it
may even be she's telling it true. I'll grant you, she's not what you'd call clever, but even my horse could
come up with a better lie, if it was a lie she meant to tell. As you insist, however ... Ser Balon, escort
Lady Brienne to a tower cell and hold her there under guard. And find some suitable quarters for
Steelshanks and his men, until such time as my father can see them."
"Yes, my lord."
Brienne's big blue eyes were full of hurt as Balon Swann and a dozen gold cloaks led her away. You
ought to be blowing me kisses, wench, he wanted to tell her. Why must they misunderstand every bloody
thing he
did? Aerys. It all grows from Aerys. Jaime turned his back on the wench and strode across the yard.
Another knight in white armor was guarding the doors of the royal sept; a tall man with a black beard,
broad shoulders, and a hooked nose. When he saw Jaime he gave a sour smile and said, "And where do
you think you're going?"
"Into the sept." Jaime lifted his stump to point. "That one right there. I mean to see the queen."
"Her Grace is in mourning. And why would she be wanting to see the likes of you?"
Because I'm her lover, and the father of her murdered son, he wanted to say. "Who in seven hells are
you?"
"A knight of the Kingsguard, and you'd best learn some respect, cripple, or I'll have that other hand and
leave you to suck up your porridge of a morning."
"I am the queen's brother, ser."
The white knight thought that funny. "Escaped, have you? And grown a bit as well, m'lord?"
"Her other brother, dolt. And the Lord Commander of the Kingsguard. Now stand aside, or you'll wish


you had."
The dolt took a long look this time. "Is it ... Ser Jaime." He straightened. "My pardons, milord. I did not
know you. I have the honor to be Ser Osmund Kettleblack."
Where's the honor in that? "I want some time alone with my sister. See that no one else enters the sept,
ser. If we're disturbed, I'll have your bloody head."
"Aye, ser. As you say." Ser Osmund opened the door.
Cersei was kneeling before the altar of the Mother. Joffrey's bier had been laid out beneath the Stranger,
who led the newly dead to the other world. The smell of incense hung heavy in the air, and a hundred
candles burned, sending up a hundred prayers. Joff's like to need every one of them, too.
His sister looked over her shoulder. "Who?" she said, then, "Jaime?" She rose, her eyes brimming with
tears. "Is it truly you?" She did not come to him, however. She has never come to me, he thought. She
has always waited, letting me come to her. She gives, but I must ask. "You should have come sooner,"
she murmured, when he took her in his arms. "Why couldn't you have come sooner, to keep him safe?
My boy ...
Our boy. "I came as fast I could." He broke from the embrace, and stepped back a pace. "It's war out
there, Sister."
"You look so thin. And your hair, your golden hair. . .
"The hair will grow back." Jaime lifted his stump. She needs to see. "This won't."
Her eyes went wide. "The Starks..."
"No. This was Vargo Hoat's work."
The name meant nothing to her. "Who?"
"The Goat of Harrenhal. For a little while."
Cersei turned to gaze at Joffrey's bier. They had dressed the dead king in gilded armor, eerily similar to
Jaime's own. The visor of the helm was closed, but the candles reflected softly off the gold, so the boy
shimmered bright and brave in death. The candlelight woke fires in the rubies that decorated the bodice
of Cersei's mourning dress as well. Her hair fell to her shoulders, undressed and unkempt. "He killed him,
Jaime. just as he'd warned me. One day when I thought myself safe and happy he would turn my joy to
ashes in my mouth, he said."
"Tyrion said that?" Jaime had not wanted to believe it. Kinslaying was worse than kingslaying, in the eyes
of gods and men. He knew the boy was mine. I loved Tyrion. I was good to him. Well, but for that one
time ... but the imp did not know the truth of that. Or did he? "Why would he kill Joff ? "
"For a whore." She clutched his good hand and held it tight in hers. "He told me he was going to do it.
Joff knew. As he was dying, he pointed at his murderer. At our twisted little monster of a brother." She
kissed Jaime's fingers. "You'll kill him for me, won't you? You'll avenge our son."
Jaime pulled away. "He is still my brother." He shoved his stump at her face, in case she failed to see it.


"And I am in no flt state to be killing anyone."
"You have another hand, don't you? I am not asking you to best the Hound in battle. Tyrion is a dwarf,
locked in a cell. The guards would stand aside for you."
The thought turned his stomach. "I must know more of this. Of how it happened."
"You shall," Cersei promised. "There's to be a trial. When you hear all he did, you'll want him dead as
much as I do." She touched his face. "I was lost without you, Jaime. I was afraid the Starks would send
me your head. I could not have borne that." She kissed him. A light kiss, the merest brush of her lips on
his, but he could feel her tremble as he slid his arms around her. "I am not whole without you."
There was no tenderness in the kiss he returned to her, only hunger. Her mouth opened for his tongue.
"No," she said weakly when his lips moved down her neck, "not here. The septons . . . "
"The Others can take the septons." He kissed her again, kissed her silent, kissed her until she moaned.
Then he knocked the candles aside and lifted her up onto the Mother's altar, pushing up her skirts and
the silken shift beneath. She pounded on his chest with feeble fists, murmuring
about the risk, the danger, about their father, about the septons, about the wrath of gods. He never
heard her. He undid his breeches and climbed up and pushed her bare white legs apart. One hand slid up
her thigh and underneath her smallclothes. When he tore them away, he saw that her moon's blood was
on her, but it made no difference.
"Hurry," she was whispering now, "quickly, quickly, now, do it now, do me now. Jaime Jaime Jaime."
Her hands helped guide him. "Yes," Cersei said as he thrust, "my brother, sweet brother, yes, like that,
yes, I have you, you're home now, you're home now, you're home." She kissed his ear and stroked his
short bristly hair. Jaime lost himself in her flesh. He could feel Cersei's heart beating in time with his own,
and the wetness of blood and seed where they were joined.
But no sooner were they done than the queen said, "Let me up. If we are discovered like this. . ."
Reluctantly he rolled away and helped her off the altar. The pale marble was smeared with blood. Jaime
wiped it clean with his sleeve, then bent to pick up the candles he had knocked over. Fortunately they
had all gone out when they fell. ff the sept had caught fi-re I might never have noticed.
"This was folly." Cersei pulled her gown straight. "With Father in the castle ... Jaime, we must be
careful."
"I am sick of being careful. The Targaryens wed brother to sister, why shouldn't we do the same? Marry
me, Cersei. Stand up before the realm and say it's me you want. We'll have our own wedding feast, and
make another son in place of Joffrey."
She drew back. "That's not funny."
"Do you hear me chuckling?"
"Did you leave your wits at Riverrun?" Her voice had an edge to it. "Tommen's throne derives from
Robert, you know that."
"He'll have Casterly Rock, isn't that enough? Let Father sit the throne. All I want is you." He made to


touch her cheek. Old habits die hard, and it was his right arm he lifted.
Cersei recoiled from his stump. "Don't ... don't talk like this. You're scaring me, Jaime. Don't be stupid.
One wrong word and you'll cost us everything. What did they do to you?"
"They cut off my hand."
"No, it's more, you're changed." She backed off a step. "We'll talk later. on the morrow. I have Sansa
Stark's maids in a tower cell, I need to question them ... you should go to Father."
"I crossed a thousand leagues to come to you, and lost the best part of me along the way. Don't tell me
to leave."
"Leave me," she repeated, turning away.
Jaime laced up his breeches and did as she commanded. Weary as he
was, he could not seek a bed. By now his lord father knew that he was back in the city.
The Tower of the Hand was guarded by Lannister household guards, who knew him at once. "The gods
are good, to give you back to us, ser," one said, as he held the door.
"The gods had no part in it. Catelyn Stark gave me back. Her, and the Lord of the Dreadfort."
He climbed the stairs and pushed into the solar unannounced, to find his father sitting by the fire. Lord
Tywin was alone, for which Jaime was thankful. He had no desire to flaunt his maimed hand for Mace
Tyrell or the Red Viper just now, much less the two of them together.
"Jaime," Lord Tywin said, as if they'd last seen each other at breakfast. "Lord Bolton led me to expect
you earlier. I had hoped you'd be here for the wedding."
"I was delayed." Jaime closed the door softly. "My sister outdid herself, I'm told. Seventy-seven courses
and a regicide, never a wedding like it. How long have you known I was free?"
"The eunuch told me a few days after your escape. I sent men into the riverlands to look for you. Gregor
Clegane, Samwell Spicer, the brothers Plumm. Varys put out the word as well, but quietly. We agreed
that the fewer people who knew you were free, the fewer would be hunting you."
"Did Varys mention this?" He moved closer to the fire, to let his father see.
Lord Tywin pushed himself out of his chair, breath hissing between his teeth. "Who did this? If Lady
Catelyn thinks - "
"Lady Catelyn held a sword to my throat and made me swear to return her daughters. This was your
goat's work. Vargo Hoat, the Lord of Harrenhal! "
Lord Tywin looked away, disgusted. "No longer. Ser Gregor's taken the castle. The sellswords deserted
their erstwhile captain almost to a man, and some of Lady Whent's old people opened a postern gate.
Clegane found Hoat sitting alone in the Hall of a Hundred Hearths, half-mad with pain and fever from a
wound that festered. His ear, I'm told."


Jaime had to laugh. Too sweet! His ear! He could scarcely wait to tell Brienne, though the wench
wouldn't find it half so funny as he did. "Is he dead yet?"
"Soon. They have taken off his hands and feet, but Clegane seems amused by the way the Qohorik
slobbers."
Jaime's smile curdled. "What about his Brave Companions?"
"The few who stayed at Harrenhal are dead. The others scattered. They'll make for ports, I'll warrant, or
try and lose themselves in the woods." His eyes went back to Jaime's stump, and his mouth grew taut
with fury. "We'll have their heads. Every one. Can you use a sword with your left hand?"
I can hardly dress myself in the morning. Jaime held up the hand in question for his father's inspection.
"Four fingers, a thumb, much like the other. Why shouldn't it work as well?"
"Good." His father sat. "That is good. I have a gift for you. For your return. After Varys told me. . .-
"Unless it's a new hand, let it wait." Jaime took the chair across from him. "How did Joffrey die?"
"Poison. It was meant to appear as though he choked on a morsel of food, but I had his throat slit open
and the maesters could find no obstruction."
"Cersei claims that Tyrion did it."
"Your brother served the king the poisoned wine, with a thousand people looking on."
"That was rather foolish of him."
"I have taken Tyrion's squire into custody. His wife's maids as well. We shall see if they have anything to
tell us. Ser Addam's gold cloaks are searching for the Stark girl, and Varys has offered a reward. The
king's justice will be done."
The king's justice. "You would execute your own son?"
"He stands accused of regicide and kinslaying. If he is innocent, he has nothing to fear. First we must
needs consider the evidence for and against him."
Evidence. In this city of liars, Jaime knew what sort of evidence would be found. "Renly died strangely
as well, when Stannis needed him to."
"Lord Renly was murdered by one of his own guards, some woman from Tarth."
"That woman from Tarth is the reason I'm here. I tossed her into a cell to appease Ser Loras, but I'll
believe in Renly's ghost before I believe she did him any harm. But Stannis - "
"It was poison that killed Joffrey, not sorcery." Lord Tywin glanced at Jaime's stump again. "You cannot
serve in the Kingsguard without a sword hand - "
"I can," he interrupted. "And I will. There's precedent. I'll look in the White Book and find it, if you like.
Crippled or whole, a knight of the Kingsguard serves for life."


"Cersei ended that when she replaced Ser Barristan on grounds of age. A suitable gift to the Faith will
persuade the High Septon to release you from your vows. Your sister was foolish to dismiss Selmy,
admittedly, but now that she has opened the gates - "
"- someone needs to close them again." Jaime stood. "I am tired of having highborn women kicking pails
of shit at me, Father. No one ever asked me if I wanted to be Lord Commander of the Kingsguard, but it
seems I am. I have a duty - "
"You do." Lord Tywin rose as well. "A duty to House Lannister. You are the heir to Casterly Rock.
That is where you should be. Tornmen should accompany you, as your ward and squire. The Rock is
where he'll learn to be a Lannister, and I want him away from his mother. I mean to find a new husband
for Cersei. Oberyn Martell perhaps, once I convince Lord Tyrell that the match does not threaten
Highgarden. And it is past time you were wed. The Tyrells are now insisting that Margaery be wed to
Tommen, but if I were to offer you instead - "
"NO!" Jaime had heard all that he could stand. No, more than he could stand. He was sick of it, sick of
lords and lies, sick of his father, his sister, sick of the whole bloody business. "No. No. No. No. No.
How many times must I say no before you'll hear it? Oberyn Martell? The man's infamous, and not just
for poisoning his sword. He has more bastards than Robert, and beds with boys as well. And if you think
for one misbegotten moment that I would wed Joffrey's widow..."
"Lord Tyrell swears the girl's still maiden."
"She can die a maiden as far as I'm concerned. I don't want her, and I don't want your Rock!"
"You are my son - "
"I am a knight of the Kingsguard. The Lord Commander of the Kingsguard! And that's all I mean to be!"
Firelight gleamed golden in the stiff whiskers that framed Lord Tywin's face. A vein pulsed in his neck,
but he did not speak. And did not speak. And did not speak.
The strained silence went on until it was more than Jaime could endure. "Father . . . " he began.
"You are not my son." Lord Tywin turned his face away. "You say you are the Lord Commander of the
Kingsguard, and only that. Very well, ser. Go do your duty."
Chapter 63
DAVOS
Their voices rose like cinders, swirling up into purple evening sky. "Lead us from the darkness, 0 my
Lord. Fill our hearts with fire, so we may walk your shining path."
The nightfire burned against the gathering dark, a great bright beast whose shifting orange light threw
shadows twenty feet tall across the yard. All along the walls of Dragonstone the army of gargoyles and
grotesques seemed to stir and shift.


Davos looked down from an arched window in the gallery above. He watched Melisandre lift her arms,
as if to embrace the shivering flames. "WhIlor," she sang in a voice loud and clear, "you are the light in
our eyes, the fire in our hearts, the heat in our loins. Yours is the sun that warms our days, yours the stars
that guard us in the dark of night."
"Lord of Light, defend us. The night is dark and full of terrors. " Queen Selyse led the responses, her
pinched face full of fervor. King Stannis stood beside her, jaw clenched hard, the points of his red-gold
crown shimmering whenever he moved his head. He is with them, but not of them, Davos thought.
Princess Shireen was between them, the mottled grey patches on her face and neck almost black in the
firelight.
"Lord of Light, protect us," the queen sang. The king did not respond with the others. He was staring
into the flames. Davos wondered what he saw there. Another vision of the war to come? Or something
closer to home?
"WhIlor who gave us breath, we thank you," sang Melisandre. "R'hllor who gave us day, we thank you."
"We thank you for the sun that warms us," Queen Selyse and the
other worshipers replied. "We thank you for the stars that watch us. We thank you for our hearths and
for our torches, that keep the savage dark at bay." There were fewer voices saying the responses than
there had been the night before, it seemed to Davos; fewer faces flushed with orange light about the fire.
But would there be fewer still on the morrow ... or more?
The voice of Ser Axell Florent rang loud as a trumpet. He stood barrelchested and bandy-legged, the
firelight washing his face like a monstrous orange tongue. Davos wondered if Ser Axell would thank him,
after. The work they did tonight might well make him the King's Hand, as he dreamed.
Melisandre cried, "We thank you for Stannis, by your grace our king. We thank you for the pure white
fire of his goodness, for the red sword of justice in his hand, for the love he bears his leal people. Guide
him and defend him, R'hllor, and grant him strength to smite his foes."
"Grant him strength," answered Queen Selyse, Ser Axell, Devan, and the rest. "Grant him courage.
Grant him wisdom."
When he was a boy, the septons had taught Davos to pray to the Crone for wisdom, to the Warrior for
courage, to the Smith for strength. But it was the Mother he prayed to now, to keep his sweet son Devan
safe from the red woman's demon god.
"Lord Davos? We'd best be about it." Ser Andrew touched his elbow gently. "My lord?"
The title still rang queer in his ears, yet Davos turned away from the window. "Aye. It's time." Stannis,
Melisandre, and the queen's men would be at their prayers an hour or more. The red priests lit their fires
every day at sunset, to thank R'hllor for the day just ending, and beg him to send his sun back on the
morrow to banish the gathering darkness. A smuggler must know the tides and when to seize them. That
was all he was at the end of the day; Davos the smuggler. His maimed hand rose to his throat for his luck,
and found nothing. He snatched it down and walked a bit more quickly.
His companions kept pace, matching their strides to his own. The Bastard of Nightsong had a
pox-ravaged face and an air of tattered chivalry; Ser Gerald Gower was broad, bluff, and blond; Ser


Andrew Estermont stood a head taller, with a spade-shaped beard and shaggy brown eyebrows. They
were all good men in their own ways, Davos thought. And they will all be dead men soon, if this night's
work goes badly.
"Fire is a living thing," the red woman told him, when he asked her to teach him how to see the future in
the flames. "It is always moving, always changing ... like a book whose letters dance and shift even as
you try to read them. It takes years of training to see the shapes beyond the flames, and more years still
to learn to tell the shapes of what will
be from what may be or what was. Even then it comes hard, hard. You do not understand that, you men
of the sunset lands." Davos asked her then how it was that Ser Axell had learned the trick of it so
quickly, but to that she only smiled enigmatically and said, "Any cat may stare into a fire and see red mice
at play."
He had not lied to his king's men, about that or any of it. "The red woman may see what we intend," he
warned them.
"We should start by killing her, then," urged Lewys the Fishwife. "I know a place where we could
waylay her, four of us with sharp swords . . . "
"You'd doom us all," said Davos. "Maester Cressen tried to kill her, and she knew at once. From her
flames, I'd guess. It seems to me that she is very quick to sense any threat to her own person, but surely
she cannot see everything. if we ignore her, perhaps we might escape her notice."
"There is no honor in hiding and sneaking," objected Ser Triston of Tally Hill, who had been a Sunglass
man before Lord Guncer went to Melisandre's fires.
"Is it so honorable to burn? " Davos asked him. "You saw Lord Sunglass die. is that what you want? I
don't need men of honor now. I need smugglers. Are you with me, or no?"
They were. Gods be good, they were.
Maester Pylos was leading Edric Storm through his sums when Davos pushed open the door. Ser
Andrew was close behind him; the others had been left to guard the steps and cellar door. The maester
broke off. "That will be enough for now, Edric."
The boy was puzzled by the intrusion. "Lord Davos, Ser Andrew. We were doing sums."
Ser Andrew smiled. "I hated sums when I was your age, coz."
"I don't mind them so much. I like history best, though. it's full of tales."
"Edric," said Maester Pylos, "run and get your cloak now. You're to go with Lord Davos."
"I am?" Edric got to his feet. "Where are we going?" His mouth set stubbornly. "I won't go pray to the
Lord of Light. I am a Warrior's man, like my father."
"We know," Davos said. "Come, lad, we must not dawdle."
Edric donned a thick hooded cloak of undyed wool. Maester Pylos helped him fasten it, and pulled the
hood up to shadow his face. "Are you coming with us, Maester?" the boy asked.


"No." Pylos touched the chain of many metals he wore about his neck. "My place is here on
Dragonstone. Go with Lord Davos now, and do as he says. He is the King's Hand, remember. What did
I tell you about the King's Hand?"
"The Hand speaks with the king's voice."
The young maester smiled. "That's so. Go now."
Davos had been uncertain of Pylos. Perhaps he resented him for taking old Cressen's place. But now he
could only admire the man's courage. This could mean his life as well.
Outside the maester's chambers, Ser Gerald Gower waited by the steps. Edric Storm looked at him
curiously. As they made their descent he asked, "Where are we going, Lord Davos?"
"To the water. A ship awaits you."
The boy stopped suddenly. "A ship?"
"One of Salladhor Saan's. Salla is a good friend of mine."
"I shall go with you, Cousin," Ser Andrew assured him. "There's nothing to be frightened of."
"I am not frightened," Edric said indignantly. "Only ... is Shireen coming too?"
"No," said Davos. "The princess must remain here with her father and mother."
"I have to see her then," Edric explained. "To say my farewells. Otherwise she'll be sad."
Not so sad as if she sees you bum. "There is no time," Davos said. "I will tell the princess that you were
thinking of her. And you can write her, when you get to where you're going."
The boy frowned. "Are you sure I must go? Why would my uncle send me from Dragonstone? Did I
displease him? I never meant to." He got that stubborn look again. "I want to see my uncle. I want to see
King Stannis."
Ser Andrew and Ser Gerald exchanged a look. "There's no time for that, Cousin," Ser Andrew said.
"I want to see him!" Edric insisted, louder.
"He does not want to see you." Davos had to say something, to get the boy moving. "I am his Hand, I
speak with his voice. Must I go to the king and tell him that you would not do as you were told? Do you
know how angry that will make him? Have you ever seen your uncle angry?" He pulled off his glove and
showed the boy the four fingers that Stannis had shortened. "I have."
It was all lies; there had been no anger in Stannis Baratheon when he cut the ends off his onion knight's
fingers, only an iron sense of justice. But Edric Storm had not been born then, and could not know that.
And the threat had the desired effect. "He should not have done that," the boy said, but he let Davos take
him by the hand and draw him down the steps.
The Bastard of Nightsong joined them at the cellar door. They walked quickly, across a shadowed yard


and down some steps, under the stone
tail of a frozen dragon. Lewys the Fishwife and Omer Blackberry waited at the postern gate, two guards
bound and trussed at their feet. "The boat?" Davos asked them.
"It's there," Lewys said. "Four oarsmen. The galley is anchored just past the point. Mad Prendos."
Davos chuckled. A ship named after a madman. Yes, that's fitting. Salla had a streak of the pirate's
black humor.
He went to one knee before Edric Storm. "I must leave you now," he said. "There's a boat waiting, to
row you out to a galley. Then it's off across the sea. You are Robert's son so I know you will be brave,
no matter what happens."
"I will. Only..." The boy hesitated.
"Think of this as an adventure, my lord." Davos tried to sound hale and cheerful. "It's the start of your
life's great adventure. May the Warrior defend you."
"And may the Father judge you justly, Lord Davos." The boy went with his cousin Ser Andrew out the
postern gate. The others followed, all but the Bastard of Nightsong. May the Father judge me justly,
Davos thought ruefully. But it was the king's judgment that concerned him now.
"These two?" asked Ser Rolland of the guards, when he had closed and barred the gate.
"Drag them into a cellar," said Davos. "You can cut them free when Edric's safely under way."
The Bastard gave a curt nod. There were no more words to say; the easy part was done. Davos pulled
his glove on, wishing he had not lost his luck. He had been a better man and a braver one with that bag of
bones around his neck. He ran his shortened fingers through thinning brown hair, and wondered if it
needed to be cut. He must look presentable when he stood before the king.
Dragonstone had never seemed so dark and fearsome. He walked slowly, his footsteps echoing off
black walls and dragons. Stone dragons who will never wake, I pray. The Stone Drum loomed huge
ahead of him. The guards at the door uncrossed their spears as he approached. Not for the onion knight,
but for the King's Hand. Davos was the Hand going in, at least. He wondered what he would be coming
out. If I ever do ...
The steps seemed longer and steeper than before, or perhaps it was just that he was tired. The Mother
never made me for tasks like this. He had risen too high and too fast, and up here on the mountain the air
was too thin for him to breathe. As a boy he'd dreamed of riches, but that was long ago. Later, grown, all
he had wanted was a few acres of good land, a hall to grow old in, a better life for his sons. The Blind
Bastard used to tell him that a clever smuggler did not overreach, nor draw too
much attention to himself. A few acres, a timbered roof, a "ser" before my name, I should have been
content. If he survived this night, he would take Devan and sail home to Cape Wrath and his gentle
Marya. We will grieve together for our dead sons, raise the living ones to be good men, and speak no
more of kings.
The Chamber of the Painted Table was dark and empty when Davos entered; the king would still be at
the nightfire, with Melisandre and the queen's men. He knelt and made a fire in the hearth, to drive the


chill from the round chamber and chase the shadows back into their corners. Then he went around the
room to each window in turn, opening the heavy velvet curtains and unlatching the wooden shutters. The
wind came in, strong with the smell of salt and sea, and pulled at his plain brown cloak.
At the north window, he leaned against the sill for a breath of the cold night air, hoping to catch a
glimpse of Mad Prendos raising sail, but the sea seemed black and empty as far as the eye could see. Is
she gone already? He could only pray that she was, and the boy with her. A half moon was sliding in and
out amongst thin high clouds, and Davos could see familiar stars. There was the Galley, sailing west; there
the Crone's Lantern, four bright stars that enclosed a golden haze. The clouds hid most of the Ice
Dragon, all but the bright blue eye that marked due north. The sky is full of smugglers' stars. They were
old friends, those stars; Davos hoped that meant good luck.
But when he lowered his gaze from the sky to the castle ramparts, he was not so certain. The wings of
the stone dragons cast great black shadows in the light from the nightfire. He tried to tell himself that they
were no more than carvings, cold and lifeless. This was their place, once. A place of dragons and
dragonlords, the seat of House Targaryen. The Targaryens were the blood of old Valyria ...
The wind sighed through the chamber, and in the hearth the flames gusted and swirled. He listened to the
logs crackle and spit. When Davos left the window his shadow went before him, tall and thin, and fell
across the Painted Table like a sword. And there he stood for a long time, waiting. He heard their boots
on the stone steps as they ascended. The king's voice went before him. ". . . is not three," he was saying.
"Three is three," came Melisandre's answer. "I swear to you, Your Grace, I saw him die and heard his
mother's wail."
"In the nightfire." Stannis and Melisandre came through the door together. "The flames are full of tricks.
What is, what will be, what may be. You cannot tell me for a certainty. . ."
"Your Grace." Davos stepped forward. "Lady Melisandre saw it true. Your nephew Joffrey is dead."
If the king was surprised to find him at the Painted Table, he gave no
sign. "Lord Davos," he said. "He was not my nephew. Though for years I believed he was."
"He choked on a morsel of food at his wedding feast," Davos said. "It may be that he was poisoned."
"He is the third," said Melisandre.
"I can count, woman." Stannis walked along the table, past Oldtown and the Arbor, up toward the
Shield Islands and the mouth of the Mander. "Weddings have become more perilous than battles, it
would seem. Who was the poisoner? Is it known?"
"His uncle, it's said. The Imp."
Stannis ground his teeth. "A dangerous man. I learned that on the Blackwater. How do you come by this
report?"
"The Lyseni still trade at King's Landing. Salladhor Saan has no reason to lie to me."
"I suppose not." The king ran his fingers across the table. "Joffrey ... I remember once, this kitchen cat ...
the cooks were wont to feed her scraps and fish heads. One told the boy that she had kittens in her belly,


thinking he might want one. Joffrey opened up the poor thing with a dagger to see if it were true. When
he found the kittens, he brought them to show to his father. Robert hit the boy so hard I thought he'd
killed him." The king took off his crown and placed it on the table. "Dwarf or leech, this killer served the
kingdom well. They must send for me now."
"They will not," said Melisandre. "Joffrey has a brother."
"Tommen." The king said the name grudgingly.
"They will crown Tommen, and rule in his name."
Stannis made a fist. "Tommen is gentler than Joffrey, but bom of the same incest. Another monster in the
making. Another leech upon the land. Westeros needs a man's hand, not a child's."
Melisandre moved closer. "Save them, sire. Let me wake the stone dragons. Three is three. Give me the
boy."
"Edric Storm," Davos said.
Stannis rounded on him in a cold fury. "I know his name. Spare me your reproaches. I like this no more
than you do, but my duty is to the realm. My duty . . . " He turned back to Melisandre. "You swear there
is no other way? Swear it on your life, for I promise, you shall die by inches if you lie."
"You are he who must stand against the Other. The one whose coming was prophesied five thousand
years ago. The red comet was your herald. You are the prince that was promised, and if you fail the
world fails with you." Melisandre went to him, her red lips parted, her ruby throbbing. "Give me this boy,"
she whispered, "and I will give you your kingdom."
"He can't," said Davos. "Edric Storm is gone."
"Gone?" Stannis turned. "What do you mean, gone?"
"He is aboard a Lyseni galley, safely out to sea." Davos watched Melisandre's pale, heart-shaped face.
He saw the flicker of dismay there, the sudden uncertainty. She did not see it!
The king's eyes were dark blue bruises in the hollows of his face. "The bastard was taken from
Dragonstone without my leave? A galley, you say? If that Lysene pirate thinks to use the boy to squeeze
gold from me - "
"This is your Hand's work, sire." Melisandre gave Davos a knowing look. "You will bring him back, my
lord. You will."
"The boy is out of my reach," said Davos. "And out of your reach as well, my lady."
Her red eyes made him squirm. "I should have left you to the dark, ser. Do you know what you have
done?"
"My duty."
"Some might call it treason." Stannis went to the window to stare out into the night. Is he looking for the
ship? "I raised you up from dirt, Davos." He sounded more tired than angry. "Was loyalty too much to


hope for?"
"Four of my sons died for you on the Blackwater. I might have died myself. You have my loyalty,
always." Davos Seaworth had thought long and hard about the words he said next; he knew his life
depended on them. "Your Grace, you made me swear to give you honest counsel and swift obedience,
to defend your realm against your foes, to protect your people. Is not Edric Storm one of your people?
One of those I swore to protect? I kept my oath. How could that be treason?"
Stannis ground his teeth again. "I never asked for this crown. Gold is cold and heavy on the head, but so
long as I am the king, I have a duty ... If I must sacrifice one child to the flames to save a million from the
dark ... Sacrifice ... is never easy, Davos. Or it is no true sacrifice. Tell him, my lady."
Melisandre said, "Azor Ahai tempered Lightbringer with the heart's blood of his own beloved wife. If a
man with a thousand cows gives one to god, that is nothing. But a man who offers the only cow he owns
. . . "
"She talks of cows," Davos told the king. "I am speaking of a boy, your daughter's friend, your brother's
son."
"A king's son, with the power of kingsblood in his veins." Melisandre's ruby glowed like a red star at her
throat. "Do you think you've saved this boy, Onion Knight? When the long night falls, Edric Storm shall
die with the rest, wherever he is hidden. Your own sons as well. Darkness and cold will cover the earth.
You meddle in matters you do not understand."
"There's much I don't understand," Davos admitted. "I have never pretended elsewise. I know the seas
and rivers, the shapes of the coasts, where the rocks and shoals lie. I know hidden coves where a boat
can
land unseen. And I know that a king protects his people, or he is no king at all."
Stannis's face darkened. "Do you mock me to my face? Must I learn a king's duty from an onion
smuggler?"
Davos knelt. "If I have offended, take my head. I'll die as I lived, your loyal man. But hear me first. Hear
me for the sake of the onions I brought you, and the fingers you took."
Starmis slid Lightbringer from its scabbard. Its glow filled the chamber. "Say what you will, but say it
quickly." The muscles in the king's neck stood out like cords.
Davos fumbled inside his cloak and drew out the crinkled sheet of parchment. It seemed a thin and
flimsy thing, yet it was all the shield he had. "A King's Hand should be able to read and write. Maester
Pylos has been teaching me." He smoothed the letter flat upon his knee and began to read by the light of
the magic sword.
Chapter 64
JON


He dreamt he was back in Winterfell, limping past the stone kings on their thrones. Their grey granite
eyes turned to follow him as he passed, and their grey granite fingers tightened on the hilts of the rusted
swords upon their laps. You are no Stark, he could hear them mutter, in heavy granite voices. There is no
place for you here. Go away. He walked deeper into the darkness. "Father?" he called. "Bran? Rickon?"
No one answered. A chill wind was blowing on his neck. "Uncle?" he called. "Uncle Benjen? Father?
Please, Father, help me." Up above he heard drums. They are feasting in the Great Hall, but I am not
welcome there. I am no Stark, and this is not my place. His crutch slipped and he fell to his knees. The
crypts were growing darker. A light has gone out somewhere. "Ygritte?" he whispered. "Forgive me.
Please." But it was only a direwolf, grey and ghastly, spotted with blood, his golden eyes shining sadly
through the dark ...
The cell was dark, the bed hard beneath him. His own bed, he remembered, his own bed in his
steward's cell beneath the Old Bear's chambers. By rights it should have brought him sweeter dreams.
Even beneath the furs, he was cold. Ghost had shared his cell before the ranging, warming it against the
chill of night. And in the wild, Ygritte had slept beside him. Both gone now He had burned Ygritte
himself, as he knew she would have wanted, and Ghost ... Where are you? Was he dead as well, was
that what his dream had meant, the bloody wolf in the crypts? But the wolf in the dream had been grey,
not white. Grey, like Bran's wolf. Had the Therms hunted him down and killed him after Queenscrown?
If so, Bran was lost to him for good and all.
Jon was trying to make sense of that when the horn blew.
The Horn of Winter, he thought, still confused from sleep. But Mance never found Joramun's horn, so
that couldn't be. A second blast followed, as long and deep as the first. Jon had to get up and go to the
Wall, he knew, but it was so hard ...
He shoved aside his furs and sat. The pain in his leg seemed duller, nothing he could not stand. He had
slept in his breeches and tunic and smallclothes, for the added warmth, so he had only to pull on his boots
and don leather and mail and cloak. The horn blew again, two long blasts, so he slung Longclaw over
one shoulder, found his crutch, and hobbled down the steps.
it was the black of night outside, bitter cold and overcast. His brothers were spilling out of towers and
keeps, buckling their swordbelts and walking toward the Wall. Jon looked for Pyp and Grenn, but could
not find them. Perhaps one of them was the sentry blowing the horn. It is Mance, he thought. He has
come at last. That was good. We will fight a battle, and then we'll rest. Alive or dead, we'll rest.
Where the stair had been, only an immense tangle of charred wood and broken ice remained below the
Wall. The winch raised them up now, but the cage was only big enough for ten men at a time, and it was
already on its way up by the time Jon arrived. He would need to wait for its return. Others waited with
him; Satin, Mully, Spare Boot, Kegs, big blond Hareth with his buck teeth. Everyone called him Horse,
He had been a stablehand in Mole's Town, one of the few moles who had stayed at Castle Black. The
rest had run back to their fields and hovels, or their beds in the underground brothel. Horse wanted to
take the black, though, the great buck-toothed fool. Zei remained as well, the whore who'd proved so
handy with a crossbow, and Noye had kept three orphan boys whose father had died on the steps. They
were young - nine and eight and five - but no one else seemed to want them.
As they waited for the cage to come back, Clydas brought them cups of hot mulled wine, while
Three-Finger Hobb passed out chunks of black bread. Jon took a heel from him and gnawed on it.
"Is it Mance Rayder?" Satin asked anxiously.


"We can hope so." There were worse things than wildlings in the dark. Jon remembered the words the
wildling king had spoken on the Fist of the First Men, as they stood amidst that pink snow. When the
dead walk, walls and stakes and swords mean nothing. You cannot fight the dead, Jon Snow No man
knows that half so well as me. just thinking of it made the wind seem a little colder.
Finally the cage came clanking back down, swaying at the end of the long chain, and they crowded in
silently and shut the door.
Mully yanked the bell rope three times. A moment later they began to rise, by fits and starts at first, then
more smoothly. No one spoke. At the top the cage swung sideways and they clambered out one by one.
Horse gave Jon a hand down onto the ice. The cold hit him in the teeth like a fist.
A line of fires burned along the top of the Wall, contained in iron baskets on poles taller than a man. The
cold knife of the wind stirred and swirled the flames, so the lurid orange light was always shifting. Bundles
of quarrels, arrows, spears, and scorpion bolts stood ready on every hand. Rocks were piled ten feet
high, big wooden barrels of pitch and lamp oil lined up beside them. Bowen Marsh had left Castle Black
well supplied in everything save men. The wind was whipping at the black cloaks of the scarecrow
sentinels who stood along the ramparts, spears in hand. "I hope it wasn't one of them who blew the
horn," Jon said to Donal Noye when he limped up beside him.
"Did you hear that?" Noye asked.
There was the wind, and horses, and something else. "A mammoth," Jon said. "That was a mammoth."
The armorer's breath was frosting as it blew from his broad, flat nose. North of the Wall was a sea of
darkness that seemed to stretch forever. Jon could make out the faint red glimmer of distant fires moving
through the wood. it was Mance, certain as sunrise. The Others did not light torches.
"How do we fight them if we can't see them?" Horse asked.
Donal Noye turned toward the two great trebuchets that Bowen Marsh had restored to working order.
"Give me light!" he roared.
Barrels of pitch were loaded hastily into the slings and set afire with a torch. The wind fanned the flames
to a brisk red fury. "NOW!" Noye bellowed. The counterweights plunged downward, the throwing arms
rose to thud against the padded crossbars. The burning pitch went tumbling through the darkness, casting
an eerie flickering light upon the ground below. Jon caught a glimpse of mammoths moving ponderously
through the half-light, and just as quickly lost them again. A dozen, maybe more. The barrels struck the
earth and burst. They heard a deep bass trumpeting, and a giant roared something in the Old Tongue, his
voice an ancient thunder that sent shivers up Jon's spine.
"Again!" Noye shouted, and the trebuchets were loaded once more. Two more barrels of burning pitch
went crackling through the gloom to come crashing down amongst the foe. This time one of them struck a
dead tree, enveloping it in flame. Not a dozen mammoths, Jon saw, a hundred.
He stepped to the edge of the precipice. Careful, he reminded himself,
it is a long way down. Red Alyn sounded his sentry's horn once more,
Aaaaahoooooooooooooooooooooooooo, aaaaahoooooooooooooooooooo. And now the wildlings
answered, not with one horn but with a dozen, and with drums and pipes as well. We are come, they


seemed to say, we are come to break your Wall, to take your lands and steal your daughters. The wind
howled, the trebuchets creaked and thumped, the barrels flew. Behind the giants and the mammoths, Jon
saw men advancing on the Wall with bows and axes. Were there twenty or twenty thousand? In the dark
there was no way to tell. This is a battle of blind men, but Mance has a few thousand more of them than
we do.
"The gate!" Pyp cried out. "They're at the GATE"
The Wall was too big to be stormed by any conventional means; too high for ladders or siege towers,
too thick for battering rams. No catapult could throw a stone large enough to breach it, and if you tried to
set it on fire, the icemelt would quench the flames. You could climb over, as the raiders did near
Greyguard, but only if you were strong and fit and sure-handed, and even then you might end up like Jarl,
impaled on a tree. They must take the gate, or they cannot pass.
But the gate was a crooked tunnel through the ice, smaller than any castle gate in the Seven Kingdoms,
so narrow that rangers must lead their garrons through single file. Three iron grates closed the inner
passage, each locked and chained and protected by a murder hole. The outer door was old oak, nine
inches thick and studded with iron, not easy to break through. But Mance has mammoths, he reminded
himself, and giants as well.
"Must be cold down there," said Noye. "What say we warm them up, lads?" A dozen jars of lamp oil
had been lined up on the precipice. PyP ran down the line with a torch, setting them alight. Owen the Oaf
followed, shoving them over the edge one by one. Tongues of pale yellow fire swirled around the jars as
they plunged downward. When the last was gone, Grenn kicked loose the chocks on a barrel of pitch
and sent it rumbling and rolling over the edge as well. The sounds below changed to shouts and screams,
sweet music to their ears.
Yet still the drums beat on, the trebuchets shuddered and thumped, and the sound of skinpipes came
wafting through the night like the songs of strange fierce birds. Septon Cellador began to sing as well, his
voice tremulous and thick with wine.
Gentle Mother, font of mercy, save our sons from war, we pray,
stay the swords and stay the arrows, let them know...
Donal Noye rounded on him. "Any man here stays his sword, I'll chuck his puckered arse right off this
Wall ... starting with you, Septon. Archers! Do we have any bloody archers?"
"Here," said Satin.
"And here," said Mully. "But how can I find a target? It's black as the inside of a pig's belly. Where are
they?"
Noye pointed north. "Loose enough arrows, might be you'll find a few. At least you'll make them fretful."
He looked around the ring of firelit faces. "I need two bows and two spears to help me hold the tunnel if
they break the gate." More than ten stepped forward, and the smith picked his four. "Jon, you have the
Wall till I return."
For a moment Jon thought he had misheard. It had sounded as if Noye were leaving him in command.
"My lord?"


"Lord? I'm a blacksmith. I said, the Wall is yours."
There are older men, Jon wanted to say, better men. I am still as green as summer grass. I'm wounded,
and I stand accused of desertion. His mouth had gone bone dry. "Aye," he managed.
Afterward it would seem to Jon Snow as if he'd dreamt that night. Side by side with the straw soldiers,
with longbows or crossbows clutched in half-frozen hands, his archers launched a hundred flights of
arrows against men they never saw. From time to time a wildling arrow came flying back in answer. He
sent men to the smaller catapults and filled the air with jagged rocks the size of a giant's fist, but the
darkness swallowed them as a man might swallow a handful of nuts. Mammoths trumpeted in the gloom,
strange voices called out in stranger tongues, and Septon Cellador prayed so loudly and drunkenly for
the dawn to come that Jon was tempted to chuck him over the edge himself. They heard a mammoth
dying at their feet and saw another lurch burning through the woods, trampling down men and trees alike.
The wind blew cold and colder. Hobb rode up the chain with cups of onion broth, and Owen and Clydas
served them to the archers where they stood, so they could gulp them down between arrows. Zei took a
place among them with her crossbow. Hours of repeated jars and shocks knocked something loose on
the right-hand trebuchet, and its counterweight came crashing free, suddenly and catastrophically,
wrenching the throwing arm sideways with a splintering crash. The left-hand trebuchet kept throwing, but
the wildlings had quickly learned to shun the place where its loads were landing.
We should have twenty trebuchets, not two, and they should be mounted on sledges and turntables so
we could move them. It was a futile thought. He might as well wish for another thousand men, and maybe
a dragon or three.
Donal Noye did not return, nor any of them who'd gone down with
him to hold that black cold tunnel. The Wall is mine, Jon reminded himself whenever he felt his strength
flagging. He had taken up a longbow himself, and his fingers felt crabbed and stiff, half-frozen. His fever
was back as well, and his leg would tremble uncontrollably, sending a white-hot knife of pain right
through him. One more arrow, and I'll rest, he told himself, half a hundred times. Just one more.
Whenever his quiver was empty, one of the orphaned moles would bring him another. One more quiver,
and I'm done. It couldn't be long until the dawn.
When morning came, none of them quite realized it at first. The world was still dark, but the black had
turned to grey and shapes were beginning to emerge half -seen from the gloom. Jon lowered his bow to
stare at the mass of heavy clouds that covered the eastern sky. He could see a glow behind them, but
perhaps he was only dreaming. He notched another arrow.
Then the rising sun broke through to send pale lances of light across the battleground. Jon found himself
holding his breath as he looked out over the half-mile swath of cleared land that lay between the Wall and
the edge of the forest. In half a night they had turned it into a wasteland of blackened grass, bubbling
pitch, shattered stone, and corpses. The carcass of the burned mammoth was already drawing crows.
There were giants dead on the ground as well, but behind them ...
Someone moaned to his left, and he heard Septon Cellador say, "Mother have mercy, oh. Oh, oh, oh,
Mother have mercy."
Beneath the trees were all the wildlings in the world; raiders and giants, wargs and skinchangers,
mountain men, salt sea sailors, ice river cannibals, cave dwellers with dyed faces, dog chariots from the
Frozen Shore, Hornfoot men with their soles like boiled leather, all the queer wild folk Mance had
gathered to break the Wall. This is not your land, Jon wanted to shout at them. There is no place for you


here, Go away. He could hear Tormund Giantsbane laughing at that. "You know nothing, Jon Snow,"
Ygritte would have said. He flexed his sword hand, opening and closing the fingers, though he knew full
well that swords would not come into it up here.
He was chilled and feverish, and suddenly the weight of the longbow was too much. The battle with the
Magnar had been nothing, he realized, and the night fight less than nothing, only a probe, a dagger in the
dark to try and catch them unprepared. The real battle was only now beginning.
"I never knew there would be so many," Satin said.
Jon had. He had seen them before, but not like this, not drawn up in battle array. On the march the
wildling column had sprawled over long leagues like some enormous worm, but you never saw all of it at
once. But now ...
"Here they come," someone said in a hoarse voice.
Mammoths centered the wildling line, he saw, a hundred or more with giants on their backs clutching
mauls and huge stone axes. More giants loped beside them, pushing along a tree trunk on great wooden
wheels, its end sharpened to a point. A ram, he thought bleakly. If the gate still stood below, a few kisses
from that thing would soon turn it into splinters. On either side of the giants came a wave of horsemen in
boiled leather harness with fire-hardened lances, a mass of running archers, hundreds of foot with spears,
slings, clubs, and leathern shields. The bone chariots from the Frozen Shore clattered forward on the
flanks, bouncing over rocks and roots behind teams of huge white dogs. The fury of the wild, Jon thought
as he listened to the skirl of skins, to the dogs barking and baying, the mammoths trumpeting, the free
folk whistling and screaming, the giants roaring in the Old Tongue. Their drums echoed off the ice like
rolling thunder.
He could feel the despair all around him. "There must be a hundred thousand," Satin wailed. "How can
we stop so many?"
"The Wall will stop them," Jon heard himself say. He turned and said it again, louder. "The Wall will stop
them. The Wall defends itself." Hollow words, but he needed to say them, almost as much as his brothers
needed to hear them. "Mance wants to unman us with his numbers. Does he think we're stupid?" He was
shouting now, his leg forgotten, and every man was listening. "The chariots, the horsemen, all those fools
on foot ... what are they going to do to us up here? Any of you ever see a mammoth climb a wall?" He
laughed, and Pyp and Owen and half a dozen more laughed with him. "They're nothing, they're less use
than our straw brothers here, they can't reach us, they can't hurt us, and they don't frighten us, do they?"
"NO" Grenn shouted.
"They're down there and we're up here," Jon said, "and so long as we hold the gate they cannot pass.
They cannot pass!" They were all shouting then, roaring his own words back at him, waving swords and
longbows in the air as their cheeks flushed red. Jon saw Kegs standing there with a warhorn slung
beneath his arm. "Brother," he told him, "sound for battle. "
Grinning, Kegs lifted the horn to his lips, and blew the two long blasts that meant wildlings. Other horns
took up the call until the Wall itself seemed to shudder, and the echo of those great deep-throated moans
drowned all other sound.
"Archers," Jon said when the horns had died away, "you'll aim for the giants with that ram, every bloody
one of you. Loose at my command, not before. THE GIANTS AND THE RAM. I want arrows raining


on them with every step, but we'll wait till they're in range. Any man who wastes an arrow will need to
climb down and fetch it back, do you hear me?"
"I do," shouted Owen the Oaf. "I hear you, Lord Snow."
Jon laughed, laughed like a drunk or a madman, and his men laughed with him. The chariots and the
racing horsemen on the flanks were well ahead of the center now, he saw. The wildlings had not crossed
a third of the half mile, yet their battle line was dissolving. "Load the trebuchet with caltrops," Jon said.
"Owen, Kegs, angle the catapults toward the center. Scorpions, load with fire spears and loose at my
command." He pointed at the Mole's Town boys. "You, you, and you, stand by with torches."
The wildling archers shot as they advanced; they would dash forward, stop, loose, then run another ten
yards. There were so many that the air was constantly full of arrows, all falling woefully short. A waste,
Jon thought. Their want of discipline is showing. The smaller horn-and-wood bows of the free folk were
outranged by the great yew longbows of the Night's Watch, and the wildlings were trying to shoot at men
seven hundred feet above them. "Let them shoot," Jon said. "Wait. Hold." Their cloaks were flapping
behind them. "The wind is in our faces, it will cost us range. Wait." Closer, closer. The skins wailed, the
drums thundered, the wildling arrows fluttered and fell.
"DRAW." Jon lifted his own bow and pulled the arrow to his ear. Satin did the same, and Grenn, Owen
the Oaf, Spare Boot, Black Jack Bulwer, Arron and Emrick. Zei hoisted her crossbow to her shoulder.
Jon was watching the ram come on and on, the mammoths and giants lumbering forward on either side.
They were so small he could have crushed them all in one hand, it seemed. If only my hand was big
enough. Through the killing ground they came. A hundred crows rose from the carcass of the dead
mammoth as the wildlings thundered past to either side of them. Closer and closer, until ...
"LOOSE"
The black arrows hissed downward, like snakes on feathered wings. Jon did not wait to see where they
struck. He reached for a second arrow as soon as the first left his bow. "NOTCH. DRAW. LOOSE."
As soon as the arrow flew he found another. "NOTCH. DRAW LOOSE." Again, and then again. Jon
shouted for the trebuchet, and heard the creak and heavy thud as a hundred spiked steel caltrops went
spinning through the air. "Catapults," he called, "scorpions. Bowmen, loose at will." Wildling arrows were
striking the Wall now, a hundred feet below them. A second giant spun and staggered. Notch, draw,
loose. A mammoth veered into another beside it, spilling giants on the ground. Notch, draw, loose. The
ram was down and done, he saw, the giants who'd pushed it dead or dying. "Fire arrows," he shouted. "I
want that ram burning." The screams of wounded mammoths and the booming cries of giants mingled
with the drums and pipes to make an awful music, yet still his archers drew and loosed, as if they'd all
gone as deaf as dead Dick Follard. They might
be the dregs of the order, but they were men of the Night's Watch, or near enough as made no matter.
That's why they shall not pass.
One of the mammoths was running berserk, smashing wildlings with his trunk and crushing archers
underfoot. Jon pulled back his bow once more, and launched another arrow at the beast's shaggy back
to urge him on. To east and west, the flanks of the wildling host had reached the Wall unopposed. The
chariots drew in or turned while the horsemen milled aimlessly beneath the looming cliff of ice. "At the
gate!" a shout came. Spare Boot, maybe. "Mammoth at the gate!"
"Fire," Jon barked. "Grenn, Pyp."


Grenn thrust his bow aside, wrestled a barrel of oil onto its side, and rolled it to the edge of the Wall,
where Pyp hammered out the plug that sealed it, stuffed in a twist of cloth, and set it alight with a torch.
They shoved it over together. A hundred feet below it struck the Wall and burst, filling the air with
shattered staves and burning oil. Grenn was rolling a second barrel to the precipice by then, and Kegs
had one as well. Pyp lit them both. "Got him!" Satin shouted, his head sticking out so far that Jon was
certain he was about to fall. "Got him, got him, GOT him!" He could hear the roar of fire. A flaming giant
lurched into view, stumbling and rolling on the ground.
Then suddenly the mammoths were fleeing, running from the smoke and flames and smashing into those
behind them in their terror. Those went backward too, the giants and wildlings behind them scrambling to
get out of their way. In half a heartbeat the whole center was collapsing. The horsemen on the flanks saw
themselves being abandoned and decided to fall back as well, not one so much as blooded. Even the
chariots rumbled off, having done nothing but look fearsome and make a lot of noise. When they break,
they break hard, Jon Snow thought as he watched them reel away. The drums had all gone silent. How
do you like that music, Mance? How do you like the taste of the Dornishman's wife? "Do we have
anyone hurt?" he asked.
"The bloody buggers got my leg." Spare Boot plucked the arrow out and waved it above his head. "The
wooden one!"
A ragged cheer went up. Zei grabbed Owen by the hands, spun him around in a circle, and gave him a
long wet kiss right there for all to see. She tried to kiss Jon too, but he held her by the shoulder and
pushed her gently but firmly away. "No," he said. I am done with kissing. Suddenly he was too weary to
stand, and his leg was agony from knee to groin. He fumbled for his crutch. "Pyp, help me to the cage.
Grenn, you have the Wall."
"Me?" said Grenn. "Him?" said Pyp. It was hard to tell which of them was more horrified. "But," Grenn
stammered, "b-but what do I do if the wildlings attack again?"
"Stop them," Jon told him.
As they rode down in the cage, Pyp took off his helm and wiped his brow. "Frozen sweat. Is there
anything as disgusting as frozen sweat?" He laughed. "Gods, I don't think I have ever been so hungry. I
could eat an aurochs whole, I swear it. Do you think Hobb will cook up Grenn for us?" When he saw
Jon's face, his smile died. "What's wrong? Is it your leg?"
"My leg," Jon agreed. Even the words were an effort.
"Not the battle, though? We won the battle."
"Ask me when I've seen the gate," Jon said grimly. I want a fire, a hot meal, a warm bed, and something
to make my leg stop hurting, he told himself. But first he had to check the tunnel and find what had
become of Donal Noye.
After the battle with the Therms it had taken them almost a day to clear the ice and broken beams away
from the inner gate. Spotted Pate and Kegs and some of the other builders had argued heatedly that they
ought just leave the debris there, another obstacle for Mance. That would have meant abandoning the
defense of the tunnel, though, and Noye was having none of it. With men in the murder holes and archers
and spears behind each inner grate, a few determined brothers could hold off a hundred times as many
wildlings and clog the way with corpses. He did not mean to give Mance Rayder free passage through
the ice. So with pick and spade and ropes, they had moved the broken steps aside and dug back down


to the gate.
Jon waited by the cold iron bars while Pyp went to Maester Aemon for the spare key. Surprisingly, the
maester himself returned with him, and Clydas with a lantern. "Come see me when we are done," the old
man told Jon while Pyp was fumbling with the chains. "I need to change your dressing and apply a fresh
poultice, and you will want some more drearnwine for the pain."
Jon nodded weakly. The door swung open. Pyp led them in, followed by Clydas and the lantern. It was
all Jon could do to keep up with Maester Aemon. The ice pressed close around them, and he could feel
the cold seeping into his bones, the weight of the Wall above his head. it felt like walking down the gullet
of an ice dragon. The tunnel took a twist, and then another. Pyp unlocked a second iron gate. They
walked farther, turned again, and saw light ahead, faint and pale through the ice. That's bad, Jon knew at
once. That's very bad.
Then Pyp said, "There's blood on the floor."
The last twenty feet of the tunnel was where they'd fought and died. The outer door of studded oak had
been hacked and broken and finally torn off its hinges, and one of the giants had crawled in through the
splinters. The lantern bathed the grisly scene in a sullen reddish light. Pyp turned aside to retch, and Jon
found himself envying Maester Aemon his blindness.
Noye and his men had been waiting within, behind a gate of heavy iron bars like the two Pyp had just
unlocked. The two crossbows had gotten off a dozen quarrels as the giant struggled toward them. Then
the spearmen must have come to the fore, stabbing through the bars. Still the giant found the strength to
reach through, twist the head off Spotted Pate, seize the iron gate, and wrench the bars apart. Links of
broken chain lay strewn across the floor. One giant. All this was the work of one giant.
"Are they all dead?" Maester Aemon asked softly.
"Yes. Donal was the last." Noye's sword was sunk deep in the giant's throat, halfway to the hilt. The
armorer had always seemed such a big man to Jon, but locked in the giant's massive arms he looked
almost like a child. "The giant crushed his spine. I don't know who died first." He took the lantern and
moved forward for a better look. "Mag." I am the last of the giants. He could feel the sadness there, but
he had no time for sadness. "It was Mag the Mighty. The king of the giants."
He needed sun then. It was too cold and dark inside the tunnel, and the stench of blood and death was
suffocating. Jon gave the lantern back to Clydas, squeezed around the bodies and through the twisted
bars, and walked toward the daylight to see what lay beyond the splintered door.
The huge carcass of a dead mammoth partially blocked the way. One of the beast's tusks snagged his
cloak and tore it as he edged past. Three more giants lay outside, half buried beneath stone and slush and
hardened pitch. He could see where the fire had melted the Wall, where great sheets of ice had come
sloughing off in the heat to shatter on the blackened ground. He looked up at where they'd come from.
When you stand here it seems immense, as if it were about to crush you.
Jon went back inside to where the others waited. "We need to repair the outer gate as best we can and
then block up this section of the tunnel. Rubble, chunks of ice, anything. All the way to the second gate, if
we can. Ser Wynton will need to take command, he's the last knight left, but he needs to move now, the
giants will be back before we know it. We have to tell him - "
"Tell him what you will," said Maester Aemon, gently. "He will smile, nod, and forget. Thirty years ago


Ser Wynton Stout came within a dozen votes of being Lord Commander. He would have made a fine
one. Ten years ago he would still have been capable. No longer. You know that as well as Donal did,
Jon."
It was true. "You give the order, then," Jon told the maester. "You have been on the Wall your whole
life, the men will follow you. We have to close the gate."
"I am a maester chained and sworn. My order serves, Jon. We give counsel, not commands."
"Someone must - "
"You. You must lead." "No." "Yes, Jon. It need not be for long. Only until such time as the garrison
returns. Donal chose you, and Qhorin Halfhand before him. Lord Commander Mormont made you his
steward. You are a son of Winterfell, a nephew of Benjen Stark. It must be you or no one. The Wall is
yours, Jon Snow."
Chapter 65
ARYA
She could feel the hole inside her every morning when she woke. It wasn't hunger, though sometimes
there was that too. It was a hollow place, an emptiness where her heart had been, where her brothers
had lived, and her parents. Her head hurt too. Not as bad as it had at first, but still pretty bad. Arya was
used to that, though, and at least the lump was going down. But the hole inside her stayed the same. The
hole will never feel any better, she told herself when she went to sleep.
Some mornings Arya did not want to wake at all. She would huddle beneath her cloak with her eyes
squeezed shut and try to will herself back to sleep. If the Hound would only have left her alone, she
would have slept all day and all night.
And dreamed. That was the best part, the dreaming. She dreamed of wolves most every night. A great
pack of wolves, with her at the head. She was bigger than any of them, stronger, swifter, faster. She
could outrun horses and outfight lions. When she bared her teeth even men would run from her, her belly
was never empty long, and her fur kept her warm even when the wind was blowing cold. And her
brothers and sisters were with her, many and more of them, fierce and terrible and hers. They would
never leave her.
But if her nights were full of wolves, her days belonged to the dog. Sandor Clegane made her get up
every morning, whether she wanted to or not. He would curse at her in his raspy voice, or yank her to
her feet and shake her. Once he dumped a helm full of cold water all over her head. She bounced up
sputtering and shivering and tried to kick him, but
he only laughed. "Dry off and feed the bloody horses," he told her, and she did.
They had two now, Stranger and a sorrel palfrey mare Arya had named Craven, because Sandor said
she'd likely run off from the Twins the same as them. They'd found her wandering riderless through a field
the morning after the slaughter. She was a good enough horse, but Arya could not love a coward.


Stranger would have fought. Still, she tended the mare as best she knew. It was better than riding double
with the Hound. And Craven might have been a coward, but she was young and strong as well. Arya
thought that she might be able to outrun Stranger, if it came to it.
The Hound no longer watched her as closely as he had. Sometimes he did not seem to care whether she
stayed or went, and he no longer bound her up in a cloak at night. One night I'll kill him in his sleep, she
told herself, but she never did. One day I'll ride away on Craven, and he won't be able to catch me, she
thought, but she never did that either. Where would she go? Winterfell was gone. Her grandfather's
brother was at Riverrun, but he didn't know her, no more than she knew him. Maybe Lady Smallwood
would take her in at Acorn Hall, but maybe she wouldn't. Besides, Arya wasn't even sure she could find
Acorn Hall again. Sometimes she thought she might go back to Shama's inn, if the floods hadn't washed it
away. She could stay with Hot Pie, or maybe Lord Beric would find her there. Anguy would teach her to
use a bow, and she could ride with Gendry and be an outlaw, like Wenda the White Fawn in the songs.
But that was just stupid, like something Sansa might dream. Hot Pie and Gendry had left her just as soon
as they could, and Lord Beric and the outlaws only wanted to ransom her, just like the Hound. None of
them wanted her around. They were never my pack, not even Hot Pie and Gendry. I was stupid to think
so, just a stupid little girl, and no wolf a t all.
So she stayed with the Hound. They rode every day, never sleeping twice in the same place, avoiding
towns and villages and castles as best they could. Once she asked Sandor Clegane where they were
going. "Away," he said. "That's all you need to know. You're not worth spit to me now, and I don't want
to hear your whining. I should have let you run into that bloody castle."
"You should have," she agreed, thinking of her mother.
"You'd be dead if I had. You ought to thank me. You ought to sing me a pretty little song, the way your
sister did."
"Did you hit her with an axe too?"
"I hit you with the flat of the axe, you stupid little bitch. If I'd hit you with the blade there'd still be chunks
of your head floating down the Green Fork. Now shut your bloody mouth. If I had any sense I'd give you
to the silent sisters. They cut the tongues out of girls who talk too much." That wasn't fair of him to say.
Aside from that one time, Arya hardly talked at all. Whole days passed when neither of them said
anything. She was too empty to talk, and the Hound was too angry. She could feel the fury in him; she
could see it on his face, the way his mouth would tighten and twist, the looks he gave her. Whenever he
took his axe to chop some wood for a fire, he would slide into a cold rage, hacking savagely at the tree
or the deadfall or the broken limb, until they had twenty times as much kindling and firewood as they'd
needed. Sometimes he would be so sore and tired afterward that he would lie down and go right to sleep
without even lighting a fire. Arya hated it when that happened, and hated him too. Those were the nights
when she stared the longest at the axe. It looks awfully heavy, but I bet I could swing it. She wouldn't hit
him with the flat, either.
Sometimes in their wanderings they glimpsed other people; farmers in their fields, swineherds with their
pigs, a milkmaid leading a cow, a squire carrying a message down a rutted road. She never wanted to
speak to them either. it was as if they lived in some distant land and spoke a queer alien tongue; they had
nothing to do with her, or her with them.
Besides, it wasn't safe to be seen. From time to time columns of horsemen passed down the winding


farm roads, the twin towers of Frey flying before them. "Hunting for stray northmen," the Hound said
when they had passed. "Any time you hear hooves, get your head down fast, it's not like to be a friend."
one day, in an earthen hollow made by the roots of a fallen oak, they came face to face with another
survivor of the Twins. The badge on his breast showed a pink maiden dancing in a swirl of silk, and he
told them he was Ser Marq Piper's man; a bowman, though he'd lost his bow. His left shoulder was all
twisted and swollen where it met his arm; a blow from a mace, he said, it had broken his shoulder and
smashed his chainmail deep into his flesh. "A northman, it was," he wept. "His badge was a bloody man,
and he saw mine and made a jape, red man and pink maiden, maybe they should get together. I drank to
his Lord Bolton, he drank to Ser Marq, and we drank together to Lord Edmure and Lady Roslin and the
King in the North. And then he killed me." His eyes were fever bright when he said that, and Arya could
tell that it was true. His shoulder was swollen grotesquely, and pus and blood had stained his whole left
side. There was a stink to him too. He smells like a corpse. The man begged them for a drink of wine.
"If I'd had any wine, I'd have drunk it myself," the Hound told him. "I can give you water, and the gift of
mercy."
The archer looked at him a long while before he said, "You're Joffrey's dog. "
"My own dog now. Do you want the water?"
"Aye." The man swallowed. "And the mercy. Please."
They had passed a small pond a short ways back. Sandor gave Arya his helm and told her to fill it, so
she trudged back to the water's edge. Mud squished over the toe of her boots. She used the dog's head
as a pail. Water ran out through the eyeholes, but the bottom of the helm still held a lot.
When she came back, the archer turned his face up and she poured the water into his mouth. He gulped
it down as fast as she could pour, and what he couldn't gulp ran down his cheeks into the brown blood
that crusted his whiskers, until pale pink tears dangled from his beard. When the water was gone he
clutched the helm and licked the steel. "Good," he said. "I wish it was wine, though. I wanted wine."
"Me too." The Hound eased his dagger into the man's chest almost tenderly, the weight of his body
driving the point through his surcoat, ringmail, and the quilting beneath. As he slid the blade back out and
wiped it on the dead man, he looked at Arya. "That's where the heart is, girl. That's how you kill a man."
That's one way. "Will we bury him?"
"Why?" Sandor said. "He don't care, and we've got no spade. Leave him for the wolves and wild dogs.
Your brothers and mine." He gave her a hard look. "First we rob him, though."
There were two silver stags in the archer's purse, and almost thirty coppers. His dagger had a pretty
pink stone in the hilt. The Hound hefted the knife in his hand, then flipped it toward Arya. She caught it
by the hilt, slid it through her belt, and felt a little better. It wasn't Needle, but it was steel. The dead man
had a quiver of arrows too, but arrows weren't much good without a bow. His boots were too big for
Arya and too small for the Hound, so those they left. She took his kettle helm as well, even though it
came down almost past her nose, so she had to tilt it back to see. "He must have had a horse as well, or
he wouldn't have got away," Clegane said, peering about, "but it's bloody well gone, I'd say. No telling
how long he's been here."
By the time they found themselves in the foothills of the Mountains of the Moon, the rains had mostly


stopped. Arya could see the sun and moon and stars, and it seemed to her that they were heading
eastward. "Where are we going?" she asked again.
This time the Hound answered her. "You have an aunt in the Eyrie. Might be she'll want to ransom your
scrawny arse, though the gods know why. Once we find the high road, we can follow it all the way to the
Bloody Gate."
Aunt Lysa. The thought left Arya feeling empty. It was her mother she wanted, not her mother's sister.
She didn't know her mother's sister
any more than she knew her great uncle Blackfish. We should have gone into the castle. They didn't
really know that her mother was dead, or Robb either. it wasn't like they'd seen them die or anything.
Maybe Lord Frey had just taken them captive. Maybe they were chained up in his dungeon, or maybe
the Freys were taking them to King's Landing so Joffrey could chop their heads off. They didn't know.
"We should go back," she suddenly decided. "We should go back to the Twins and get my mother. She
can't be dead. We have to help her."
"I thought your sister was the one with a head full of songs," the Hound growled. "Frey might have kept
your mother alive to ransom, that's true. But there's no way in seven hells I'm going to pluck her out of his
castle all by my bloody self."
"Not by yourself. I'd come too."
He made a sound that was almost a laugh. "That will scare the piss out of the old man."
"You're just afraid to die!" she said scornfully.
Now Clegane did laugh. "Death don't scare me. Only fire. Now be quiet, or I'll cut your tongue out
myself and save the silent sisters the bother. It's the Vale for us."
Arya didn't think he'd really cut her tongue out; he was just saying that the way Pinkeye used to say he'd
beat her bloody. All the same, she wasn't going to try him. Sandor Clegane was no Pinkeye. Pinkeye
didn't cut people in half or hit them with axes. Not even with the flat of axes.
That night she went to sleep thinking of her mother, and wondering if she should kill the Hound in his
sleep and rescue Lady Catelyn herself. When she closed her eyes she saw her mother's face against the
back of her eyelids. She's so close I could almost smell her ...
... and then she could smell her. The scent was faint beneath the other smells, beneath moss and mud
and water, and the stench of rotting reeds and rotting men. She padded slowly through the soft ground to
the river's edge, lapped up a drink, the lifted her head to sniff. The sky was grey and thick with cloud, the
river green and full of floating things. Dead men clogged the shallows, some still moving as the water
pushed them, others washed up on the banks. Her brothers and sisters swarmed around them, tearing at
the rich ripe flesh.
The crows were there too, screaming at the wolves and filling the air with feathers. Their blood was
hotter, and one of her sisters had snapped at one as it took flight and caught it by the wing. It made her
want a crow herself. She wanted to taste the blood, to hear the bones crunch between her teeth, to fill
her belly with warm flesh instead of cold. She was hungry and the meat was all around, but she knew she
could not eat.


The scent was stronger now. She pricked her ears up and listened to the grumbles of her pack, the
shriek of angry crows, the whirr of wings and sound of running water. Somewhere far off she could hear
horses and the calls of living men, but they were not what mattered. Only the scent mattered. She sniffed
the air again. There it was, and now she saw it too, something pale and white drifting down the river,
turning where it brushed against a snag. The reeds bowed down before it.
She splashed noisily through the shallows and threw herself into the deeper water, her legs churning. The
current was strong but she was stronger. She swam, following her nose. The river smells were rich and
wet, but those were not the smells that pulled her. She paddled after the sharp red whisper of cold blood,
the sweet cloying stench of death. She chased them as she had often chased a red deer through the trees,
and in the end she ran them down, and her jaw closed around a pale white arm. She shook it to make it
move, but there was only death and blood in her mouth. By now she was tiring, and it was all she could
do to pull the body back to shore. As she dragged it up the muddy bank, one of her little brothers came
prowling, his tongue lolling from his mouth. She had to snarl to drive him off, or else he would have fed.
Only then did she stop to shake the water from her fur. The white thing lay facedown in the mud, her
dead flesh wrinkled and pale, cold blood trickling from her throat. Rise, she thought. Rise and eat and run
with us.
The sound of horses turned her head. Men. They were coming from downwind, so she had not smelled
them, but now they were almost here. Men on horses, with flapping black and yellow and pink wings and
long shiny claws in hand. Some of her younger brothers bared their teeth to defend the food they'd found,
but she snapped at them until they scattered. That was the way of the wild. Deer and hares and crows
fled before wolves, and wolves fled from men. She abandoned the cold white prize in the mud where she
had dragged it, and ran, and felt no shame.
When morning came, the Hound did not need to shout at Arya or shake her awake. She had woken
before him for a change, and even watered the horses. They broke their fast in silence, until Sandor said,
"This thing about your mother..."
"It doesn't matter," Arya said in a dull voice. "I know she's dead. I saw her in a dream."
The Hound looked at her a long time, then nodded. No more was said of it. They rode on toward the
mountains.
in the higher hills, they came upon a tiny isolated village surrounded by grey-green sentinels and tall blue
soldier pines, and Clegane decided to risk going in. "We need food," he said, "and a roof over our heads.
They're not like to know what happened at the Twins, and with any luck they won't know me."
The villagers were building a wooden palisade around their homes, and when they saw the breadth of
the Hound's shoulders they offered them food and shelter and even coin for work. "If there's wine as
well, I'll do it," he growled at them. in the end, he settled for ale, and drank himself to sleep each night.
His dream of selling Arya to Lady Arryn died there in the hills, though. "There's frost above us and snow
in the high passes," the village elder said. "If you don't freeze or starve, the shadowcats will get you, or
the cave bears. There's the clans as well. The Burned Men are fearless since Timett One-Eye came back
from the war. And half a year ago, Gunthor son of Gurn led the Stone Crows down on a village not eight
miles from here. They took every woman and every scrap of grain, and killed half the men. They have
steel now, good swords and mail hauberks, and they watch the high road - the Stone Crows, the Milk
Snakes, the Sons of the Mist, all of them. Might be you'd take a few with you, but in the end they'd kill
you and make off with your daughter."


I'm not his daughter, Arya might have shouted, if she hadn't felt so tired. She was no one's daughter
now. She was no one. Not Arya, not Weasel, not Nan nor Arry nor Squab, not even Lumpyhead. She
was only some girl who ran with a dog by day, and dreamed of wolves by night.
It was quiet in the village. They had beds stuffed with straw and not too many lice, the food was plain
but filling, and the air smelled of pines. All the same, Arya soon decided that she hated it. The villagers
were cowards. None of them would even look at the Hound's face, at least not for long. Some of the
women tried to put her in a dress and make her do needlework, but they weren't Lady Smallwood and
she was having none of it. And there was one girl who took to following her, the village elder's daughter.
She was of an age with Arya, but just a child; she cried if she skinned a knee, and carried a stupid cloth
doll with her everywhere she went. The doll was made up to look like a man-at-arms, sort of, so the girl
called him Ser Soldier and bragged how he kept her safe. "Go away," Arya told her half a hundred times.
"Just leave me be." She wouldn't, though, so finally Arya took the doll away from her, ripped it open, and
pulled the rag stuffing out of its belly with a finger. "Now he really looks like a soldier!" she said, before
she threw the doll in a brook. After that the girl stopped pestering her, and Arya spent her days grooming
Craven and Stranger or walking in the woods. Sometimes she would find a stick and practice her
needlework, but then she would remember what had happened at the Twins and smash it against a tree
until it broke.
"Might be we should stay here awhile," the Hound told her, after a fortnight. He was drunk on ale, but
more brooding than sleepy. "We'd never reach the Eyrie, and the Freys will still be hunting survivors in
the riverlands. Sounds like they need swords here, with these clansmen raiding. We can rest up, maybe
find a way to get a letter to your aunt." Arya's face darkened when she heard that. She didn't want to
stay, but there was nowhere to go, either. The next morning, when the Hound went off to chop down
trees and haul logs, she crawled back into bed.
But when the work was done and the tall wooden palisade was finished, the village elder made it plain
that there was no place for them. "Come winter, we will be hard pressed to feed our own," he explained.
"And you ... a man like you brings blood with him."
Sandor's mouth tightened. "So you do know who I am."
"Aye. We don't get travelers here, that's so, but we go to market, and to fairs. We know about King
Joffrey's dog."
"When these Stone Crows come calling, you might be glad to have a dog."
"Might be." The man hesitated, then gathered up his courage. "But they say you lost your belly for
fighting at the Blackwater. They say - "
"I know what they say." Sandor's voice sounded like two woodsaws grinding together. "Pay me, and
we'll be gone."
When they left, the Hound had a pouch full of coppers, a skin of sour ale, and a new sword. It was a
very old sword, if truth be told, though new to him. He swapped its owner the longaxe he'd taken at the
Twins, the one he'd used to raise the lump on Arya's head. The ale was gone in less than a day, but
Clegane sharpened the sword every night, cursing the man he'd swapped with for every nick and spot of
rust. If he lost his belly for fighting, why does he care if his sword is sharp? It was not a question Arya
dared ask him, but she thought on it a lot. Was that why he'd run from the Twins and carried her off?


Back in the riverlands, they found that the rains had ebbed away, and the flood waters had begun to
recede. The Hound turned south, back toward the Trident. "We'll make for Riverrun," he told Arya as
they roasted a hare he'd killed. "Maybe the Blackfish wants to buy himself a she-wolf."
"He doesn't know me. He won't even know I'm really me." Arya was tired of making for Riverrun. She
had been making for Riverrun for years, it seemed, without ever getting there. Every time she made for
Riverrun, she ended up someplace worse. "He won't give you any ransom. He'll probably just hang you."
"He's free to try." He turned the spit.
He doesn't talk like he's lost his belly for fighting. "I know where we could go," Arya said. She still had
one brother left. fon will want me, even if no one else does. He'll call me "little sister" and muss my hair. It
was a long way, though, and she didn't think she could get there by herself. She hadn't even been able to
reach Riverrun. "We could go to the Wall."
Sandor's laugh was half a growl. "The little wolf bitch wants to join the Night's Watch, does she?"
"My brother's on the Wall," she said stubbornly.
His mouth gave a twitch. "The Wall's a thousand leagues from here. We'd need to fight through the
bloody Freys just to reach the Neck. There's lizard lions in those swamps that eat wolves every day for
breakfast. And if we did reach the north with our skins intact, there's ironborn in half the castles, and
thousands of bloody buggering northmen as well."
"Are you scared of them?" she asked. "Have you lost your belly for fighting?"
For a moment she thought he was going to hit her. By then the hare was brown, though, skin crackling
and grease popping as it dripped down into the cookfire. Sandor took it off the stick, ripped it apart with
his big hands, and tossed half of it into Arya's lap. "There's nothing wrong with my belly," he said as he
pulled off a leg, "but I don't give a rat's arse for you or your brother. I have a brother too."
Chapter 66
TYRION
"Tyrion," Ser Kevan Lannister said wearily, "if you are indeed innocent of Joffrey's death, you should
have no difficulty
proving it at trial."
Tyrion turned from the window. "Who is to judge me?"
" justice belongs to the throne. The king is dead, but your father remains Hand. Since it is his own son
who stands accused and his grandson who was the victim, he has asked Lord Tyrell and Prince Oberyn
to sit in judgment with him."
Tyrion was scarcely reassured. Mace Tyrell had been Joffrey's goodfather, however briefly, and the Red


Viper was ... well, a snake. "Will I be allowed to demand trial by battle?"
"I would not advise that."
"Why not?" It had saved him in the Vale, why not here? "Answer me, Uncle. Will I be allowed a trial by
battle, and a champion to prove my innocence?"
"Certainly, if such is your wish. However, you had best know that your sister means to name Ser Gregor
Clegane as her champion, in the event of such a trial."
The bitch checks my moves before I make them. A pity she didn't choose a Kettleblack. Bronn would
make short work of any of the three brothers, but the Mountain That Rides was a kettle of a different
color. "I shall need to sleep on this." I need to speak with Bronn, and soon. He didn't want to think about
what this was like to cost him. Bronn had a lofty notion of what his skin was worth. "Does Cersei have
witnesses against me?"
"More every day."
"Then I must have witnesses of my own."
"Tell me who you would have, and Ser Addarn will send the Watch to bring them to the trial."
"I would sooner find them myself."
"You stand accused of regicide and kinslaying. Do you truly imagine you will be allowed to come and go
as you please?" Ser Kevan waved at the table. "You have quill, ink, and parchment. Write the names of
such witnesses as you require, and I shall do all in my power to produce them, you have my word as a
Lannister. But you shall not leave this tower, except to go to trial."
Tyrion would not demean himself by begging. "Will you permit my squire to come and go? The boy
Podrick Payne?"
"Certainly, if that is your wish. I shall send him to you."
"Do so. Sooner would be better than later, and now would be better than sooner." He waddled to the
writing table. But when he heard the door open, he turned back and said, "Uncle?"
Ser Kevan paused. "Yes?"
"I did not do this."
"I wish I could believe that, Tyrion."
When the door closed, Tyrion Lannister pulled himself up into the chair, sharpened a quill, and pulled a
blank parchment. Who will speak for me? He dipped his quill in the inkpot.
The sheet was still maiden when Podrick Payne appeared, sometime later. "My lord," the boy said.
Tyrion put down the quill. "Find Bronn and bring him at once. Tell him there's gold in it, more gold than
he's ever dreamt of, and see that you don't return without him."


"Yes, my lord. I mean, no. I won't. Return." He went.
He had not returned by sunset, nor by moonrise. Tyrion fell asleep in the window seat to wake stiff and
sore at dawn. A serving man brought porridge and apples to break his fast, with a horn of ale. He ate at
the table, the blank parchment before him. An hour later, the serving man returned for the bowl. "Have
you seen my squire?" Tyrion asked him. The man shook his head.
Sighing, he turned back to the table, and dipped the quill again. Sansa, he wrote upon the parchment. He
sat staring at the name, his teeth clenched so hard they hurt.
Assuming Joffrey had not simply choked to death on a bit of food, which even Tyrion found hard to
swallow, Sansa must have poisoned him. loff practically put his cup down in her lap, and he'd given her
ample reason. Any doubts Tyrion might have had vanished when his wife did. One flesh, one heart, one
soul. His mouth twisted. She wasted
no time proving how much those vows meant to her, did she? Well, what did you expect, dwarf?
And yet ... where would Sansa have gotten poison? He could not believe the girl had acted alone in this.
Do I really want to find her? Would the judges believe that Tyrion's child bride had poisoned a king
without her husband's knowledge? I wouldn't. Cersei would insist that they had done the deed together.
Even so, he gave the parchment to his uncle the next day. Ser Kevan frowned at it. "Lady Sansa is your
only witness?"
"I will think of others in time."
"Best think of them now. The judges mean to begin the trial three days hence."
"That's too soon. You have me shut up here under guard, how am I to find witnesses to my innocence?"
"Your sister's had no difficulty finding witnesses to your guilt." Ser Kevan rolled up the parchment. "Ser
Addam has men hunting for your wife. Varys has offered a hundred stags for word of her whereabouts,
and a hundred dragons for the girl herself. If the girl can be found she will be found, and I shall bring her
to you. I see no harm in husband and wife sharing the same cell and giving comfort to one another."
"You are too kind. Have you seen my squire?"
"I sent him to you yesterday. Did he not come?"
"He came," Tyrion admitted, "and then he went."
"I shall send him to you again."
But it was the next morning before Podrick Payne returned. He stepped inside the room hesitantly, with
fear written all over his face. Bronn came in behind him. The sellsword knight wore a jerkin studded with
silver and a heavy riding cloak, with a pair of fine-tooled leather gloves thrust through his swordbelt.
One look at Bronn's face gave Tyrion a queasy feeling in the pit of his stomach. "It took you long
enough."
"The boy begged, or I wouldn't have come at all. I am expected at Castle Stokeworth for supper."


"Stokeworth?" Tyrion hopped from the bed. "And pray, what is there for you in Stokeworth?"
"A bride." Brorm smiled like a wolf contemplating a lost lamb. "I'm to wed Lollys the day after next."
"Lollys." Perfect, bloody perfect. Lady Tanda's lackwit daughter gets a knightly husband and a father of
sorts for the bastard in her belly, and Ser Bronn of the Blackwater climbs another rung. It had Cersei's
stinking fingers all over it. "My bitch sister has sold you a lame horse. The girl's dim-witted."
"If I wanted wits, Id marry you."
"Lollys is big with another man's child."
"And when she pops him out, I'll get her big with mine."
"She's not even heir to Stokeworth," Tyrion pointed out. "She has an elder sister. Falyse. A married
sister."
"Married ten years, and still barren," said Bronn. "Her lord husband shuns her bed. It's said he prefers
virgins."
"He could prefer goats and it wouldn't matter. The lands will still pass to his wife when Lady Tanda
dies."
"Unless Falyse should die before her mother."
Tyrion wondered whether Cersei had any notion of the sort of serpent she'd given Lady Tanda to
suckle. And if she does, would she care? "Why are you here, then?"
Bronn shrugged. "You once told me that if anyone ever asked me to sell you out, you'd double the
price."
Yes. "Is it two wives you want, or two castles?"
"One of each would serve. But if you want me to kill Gregor Clegane for you, it had best be a damned
big castle."
The Seven Kingdoms were full of highborn maidens, but even the oldest, poorest, and ugliest spinster in
the realm would balk at wedding such lowborn scum as Bronn. Unless she was soft of body and soft of
head, with a fatherless child in her belly from having been raped half a hundred times. Lady Tanda had
been so desperate to find a husband for Lollys that she had even pursued Tyrion for a time, and that had
been before half of King's Landing enjoyed her. No doubt Cersei had sweetened the offer somehow,
and Brorm was a knight now, which made him a suitable match for a younger daughter of a minor house.
"I find myself woefully short of both castles and highborn maidens at the moment," Tyrion admitted. "But
I can offer you gold and gratitude, as before."
"I have gold. What can I buy with gratitude?"
"You might be surprised. A Lannister pays his debts."


"Your sister is a Lannister too."
"My lady wife is heir to Winterfell. Should I emerge from this with my head still on my shoulders, I may
one day rule the north in her name. I could carve you out a big piece of it."
"If and when and might be," said Bronn. "And it's bloody cold up there. Lollys is soft, warm, and close. I
could be poking her two nights hence."
"Not a prospect I would relish."
"Is that so?" Bronn grinned. "Admit it, Imp. Given a choice between fucking Lollys and fighting the
Mountain, you'd have your breeches down and cock up before a man could blink."
He knows me too bloody well. Tyrion tried a different tack. "I'd heard
that Ser Gregor was wounded on the Red Fork, and again at Duskendale. The wounds are bound to
slow him."
Bronn looked annoyed. "He was never fast. Only freakish big and freakish strong. I'll grant you, he's
quicker than you'd expect for a man that size. He has a monstrous long reach, and doesn't seem to feel
blows the way a normal man would."
"Does he frighten you so much? " asked Tyrion, hoping to provoke him.
"if he didn't frighten me, I'd be a bloody fool." Bronn gave a shrug. "Might be I could take him. Dance
around him until he was so tired of hacking at me that he couldn't lift his sword. Get him off his feet
somehow. When they're flat on their backs it don't matter how tall they are. Even so, it's chancy. One
misstep and I'm dead. Why should I risk it? I like you well enough, ugly little whoreson that you are ...
but if I fight your battle, I lose either way. Either the Mountain spills my guts, or I kill him and lose
Stokeworth. I sell my sword, I don't give it away. I'm not your bloody brother."
"No," said Tyrion sadly. "You're not." He waved a hand. "Begone, then. Run to Stokeworth and Lady
Lollys. May you find more joy in your marriage bed than I ever found in mine."
Bronn hesitated at the door. "What will you do, Imp?"
"Kill Gregor myself. Won't that make for a jolly song?"
,'I hope I hear them sing it." Bronn grinned one last time, and walked out of the door, the castle, and his
life.
Pod shuffled his feet. "I'm sorry."
"Why? is it your fault that Bronn's an insolent black-hearted rogue? He's always been an insolent
black-hearted rogue. That's what I liked about him." Tyrion poured himself a cup of wine and took it to
the window seat. Outside the day was grey and rainy, but the prospect was still more cheerful than his.
He could send Podrick Payne questing after Shagga, he supposed, but there were so many hiding places
in the deep of the kingswood that outlaws often evaded capture for decades. And Pod sometimes has
difficulty finding the kitchens when I send him down for cheese. Timett son of Timett would likely be
back in the Mountains of the Moon by now. And despite what he'd told Bronn, going up against Ser
Gregor Clegane in his own person would be a bigger farce than Joffrey's jousting dwarfs. He did not


intend to die with gales of laughter ringing in his ears. So much for trial by combat.
Ser Kevan paid him another call later that day, and again the day after. Sansa had not been found, his
uncle informed him politely. Nor the fool Ser Dontos, who'd vanished the same night. Did Tyrion have
any more witnesses he wished to summon? He did not. How do I bloody well prove I didn't poison the
wine, when a thousand people saw me fill /off 's cup?
He did not sleep at all that night.
Instead he lay in the dark, staring up at the canopy and counting his ghosts. He saw Tysha smiling as she
kissed him, saw Sansa naked and shivering in fear. He saw Joffrey clawing his throat, the blood running
down his neck as his face turned black. He saw Cersei's eyes, Bronn's wolfish smile, Shae's wicked grin.
Even thought of Shae could not arouse him. He fondled himself, thinking that perhaps if he woke his cock
and satisfied it, he might rest more easily afterward, but it was no good.
And then it was dawn, and time for his trial to begin.
It was not Ser Kevan who came for him that morning, but Ser Addam Marbrand with a dozen gold
cloaks. Tyrion had broken his fast on boiled eggs, burned bacon, and fried bread, and dressed in his
finest. "Ser Addam," he said. "I had thought my father might send the Kingsguard to escort me to trial. I
am still a member of the royal family, am I not?"
"You are, my lord, but I fear that most of the Kingsguard stand witness against you. Lord Tywin felt it
would not be proper for them to serve as your guards."
"Gods forbid we do anything improper. Please, lead on."
He was to be tried in the throne room, where Joffrey had died. As Ser Addam marched him through the
towering bronze doors and down the long carpet, he felt the eyes upon him. Hundreds had crowded in to
see him judged. At least he hoped that was why they had come. For all I know, they're all witnesses
against me. He spied Queen Margaery up in the gallery, pale and beautiful in her mourning. Twice wed
and twice widowed, and only sixteen. Her mother stood tall to one side of her, her grandmother small on
the other, with her ladies in waiting and her father's household knights packing the rest of the gallery.
The dais still stood beneath the empty iron Throne, though all but one table had been removed. Behind it
sat stout Lord Mace Tyrell in a gold mantle over green, and slender Prince Oberyn Martell in flowing
robes of striped orange, yellow, and scarlet. Lord Tywin Lannister sat between them. Perhaps there's
hope for me yet. The Domishman and the Highgardener despised each other. If I can ftnd a way to use
that ...
The High Septon began with a prayer, asking the Father Above to guide them to justice. When he was
done the father below leaned forward to say, "Tyrion, did you kill King Joffrey?"
He would not waste a heartbeat. "No."
"Well, that's a relief," said Oberyn Martell dryly.
"Did Sansa Stark do it, then?" Lord Tyrell demanded.
I would have, if I'd been her. Yet wherever Sansa was and whatever her part in this might have been,
she remained his wife. He had wrapped the cloak of his protection about her shoulders, though he'd had


to stand on a fool's back to do it. "The gods killed Joffrey. He choked on his pigeon pie."
Lord Tyrell reddened. "You would blame the bakers?"
"Them, or the pigeons. just leave me out of it." Tyrion heard nervous laughter, and knew he'd made a
mistake. Guard your tongue, you little fool, before it digs your grave.
"There are witnesses against you," Lord Tywin said. "We shall hear them first. Then you may present
your own witnesses. You are to speak only with our leave."
There was naught that Tyrion could do but nod.
Ser Addarn had told it true; the first man ushered in was Ser Balon Swann of the Kingsguard. "Lord
Hand," he began, after the High Septon had sworn him to speak only truth, "I had the honor to fight
beside your son on the bridge of ships. He is a brave man for all his size, and I will not believe he did this
thing."
A murmur went through the hall, and Tyrion wondered what mad game Cersei was playing. Why offer a
witness that believes me innocent? He soon learned. Ser Balon spoke reluctantly of how he had pulled
Tyrion away from Joffrey on the day of the riot. "He did strike His Grace, that's so. It was a fit of wroth,
no more. A summer storm. The mob near killed us all."
"In the days of the Targaryens, a man who struck one of the blood royal would lose the hand he struck
him with," observed the Red Viper of Dome. "Did the dwarf regrow his little hand, or did you White
Swords forget your duty?"
"He was of the blood royal himself," Ser Balon answered. "And the King's Hand beside."
"No," Lord Tywin said. "He was acting Hand, in my stead."
Ser Meryn Trant was pleased to expand on Ser Balon's account, when he took his place as witness.
"He knocked the king to the ground and began kicking him. He shouted that it was unjust that His Grace
had escaped unharmed from the mobs."
Tyrion began to grasp his sister's plan. She began with a man known to be honest, and milked him for all
he would give. Every witness to follow will tell a worse tale, until I seem as bad as Maegor the Cruel and
Aerys the Mad together, with a pinch of Aegon the Unworthy for spice.
Ser Meryn went on to relate how Tyrion had stopped Joffrey's chastisement of Sansa Stark. "The dwarf
asked His Grace if he knew what had happened to Aerys Targaryen. When Ser Boros spoke up in
defense of the king, the Imp threatened to have him killed."
Blount himself came next, to echo that sorry tale. Whatever mislike Ser Boros might harbor toward
Cersei for dismissing him from the Kingsguard, he said the words she wanted all the same.
Tyrion could no longer hold his tongue. "Tell the judges what Joffrey was doing, why don't you?"
The big jowly man glared at him. "You told your savages to kill me if I opened my mouth, that's what I'll
tell them."
"Tyrion," Lord Tywin said. "You are to speak only when we call upon you. Take this for a warning."


Tyrion subsided, seething.
The Kettleblacks came next, all three of them in turn. Osney and Osfryd told the tale of his supper with
Cersei before the Battle of the Blackwater, and of the threats he'd made.
"He told Her Grace that he meant to do her harm," said Ser Osfryd. "To hurt her." His brother Osney
elaborated. "He said he would wait for a day when she was happy, and make her joy turn to ashes in her
mouth." Neither mentioned Alayaya.
Ser Osmund Kettleblack, a vision of chivalry in immaculate scale armor and white wool cloak, swore
that King Joffrey had long known that his uncle Tyrion meant to murder him. "It was the day they gave
me the white cloak, my lords," he told the judges. "That brave boy said to me, 'Good Ser Osmund, guard
me well, for my uncle loves me not. He means to be king in my place."'
That was more than Tyrion could stomach. "Liar!" He took two steps forward before the gold cloaks
dragged him back.
Lord Tywin frowned. "Must we have you chained hand and foot like a common brigand?"
Tyrion gnashed his teeth. A second mistake, fool, fool, fool of a dwarf. Keep your calm or you're
doomed. "No. I beg your pardons, my lords. His lies angered me."
"His truths, you mean," said Cersei. "Father, I beg you to put him in fetters, for your own protection.
You see how he is."
"I see he's a dwarf," said Prince Oberyn. "The day I fear a dwarf's wrath is the day I drown myself in a
cask of red."
"We need no fetters." Lord Tywin glanced at the windows, and rose. "The hour grows late. We shall
resume on the morrow."
That night, alone in his tower cell with a blank parchment and a cup of wine, Tyrion found himself
thinking of his wife. Not Sansa; his first wife, Tysha. The whore wife, not the wolf wife. Her love for him
had been pretense, and yet he had believed, and found joy in that belief. Give me sweet lies, and keep
your bitter truths. He drank his wine and thought of Shae. Later, when Ser Kevan paid his nightly visit,
Tyrion asked for Varys.
"You believe the eunuch will speak in your defense?"
"I won't know until I have talked with him. Send him here, Uncle, if you would be so good."
"As you wish."
Maesters Ballabar and Frenken opened the second day of trial. They
had opened King Joffrey's noble corpse as well, they swore, and found no morsel of pigeon pie nor any
other food lodged in the royal throat. "It was poison that killed him, my lords," said Ballabar, as Frenken
nodded gravely.
Then they brought forth Grand Maester Pycelle, leaning heavily on a twisted cane and shaking as he


walked, a few white hairs sprouting from his long chicken's neck. He had grown too frail to stand, so the
judges permitted a chair to be brought in for him, and a table as well. On the table were laid a number of
small jars. Pycelle was pleased to put a name to each.
"Greycap," he said in a quavery voice, "from the toadstool. Nightshade, sweetsleep, demon's dance.
This is blindeye. Widow's blood, this one is called, for the color. A cruel potion. It shuts down a man's
bladder and bowels, until he drowns in his own poisons. This wolfsbane, here basilisk venom, and this
one the tears of Lys. Yes. I know them all. The Imp Tyrion Lannister stole them from my chambers,
when he had me falsely imprisoned."
"Pycelle," Tyrion called out, risking his father's wrath, "could any of these poisons choke off a man's
breath?"
"No. For that, you must turn to a rarer poison. When I was a boy at the Citadel, my teachers named it
simply the strangler."
"But this rare poison was not found, was it?"
"No, my lord." Pycelle blinked at him. "You used it all to kill the noblest child the gods ever put on this
good earth."
Tyrion's anger overwhelmed his sense. "Joffrey was cruel and stupid, but I did not kill him. Have my
head off if you like, I had no hand in my nephew's death."
"Silence!" Lord Tywin said. "I have told you thrice. The next time, you shall be gagged and chained."
After Pycelle came the procession, endless and wearisome. Lords and ladies and noble knights,
highborn and humble alike, they had all been present at the wedding feast, had all seen Joffrey choke, his
face turning as black as a Dornish plum. Lord Redwyne, Lord Celtigar, and Ser Flement Brax had heard
Tyrion threaten the king; two serving men, a juggler, Lord Gyles, Ser Hobber Redwyne, and Ser Philip
Foote had observed him fill the wedding chalice; Lady Merryweather swore that she had seen the dwarf
drop something into the king's wine while Joff and Margaery were cutting the pie; old Estermont, young
Peckledon, the singer Galyeon of Cuy, and the squires Morros and Jothos Slynt told how Tyrion had
picked up the chalice as Joff was dying and poured out the last of the poisoned wine onto the floor.
When did I make so many enemies? Lady Merryweather was all but a stranger. Tyrion wondered if she
was blind or bought. At least Galyeon
of Cuy had not set his account to music, or else there might have been seventy-seven bloody verses to it.
When his uncle called that night after supper, his manner was cold and distant. He thinks I did it too. "Do
you have witnesses for us?" Ser Kevan asked him.
"Not as such, no. Unless you've found my wife."
His uncle shook his head. "It would seem the trial is going very badly for you."
"Oh, do you think so? I hadn't noticed." Tyrion fingered his scar. "Varys has not come."
"Nor will he. On the morrow he testifies against you."


Lovely. "I see." He shifted in his seat. "I am curious. You were always a fair man, Uncle. What
convinced you?"
"Why steal Pycelle's poisons, if not to use them?" Ser Kevan said bluntly. "And Lady Merryweather saw
- "
" - nothing! There was nothing to see. But how do I prove that? How do I prove anything, penned up
here?"
"Perhaps the time has come for you to confess."
Even through the thick stone walls of the Red Keep, Tyrion could hear the steady wash of rain. "Say that
again, Uncle? I could swear you urged me to confess."
"If you were to admit your guilt before the throne and repent of your crime, your father would withhold
the sword. You would be permitted to take the black."
Tyrion laughed in his face. "Those were the same terms Cersei offered Eddard Stark. We all know how
that ended."
"Your father had no part in that."
That much was true, at least. "Castle Black teems with murderers, thieves and rapists," Tyrion said, "but
I don't recall meeting many regicides while I was there. You expect me to believe that if I admit to being
a kinslayer and kingslayer, my father will simply nod, forgive me, and pack me off to the Wall with some
warm woolen smallclothes." He hooted rudely.
"Naught was said of forgiveness," Ser Kevan said sternly. "A confession would put this matter to rest. It
is for that reason your father sends me with this offer."
"Thank him kindly for me, Uncle," said Tyrion, "but tell him I am not presently in a confessing mood."
"Were I you, I'd change my mood. Your sister wants your head, and Lord Tyrell at least is inclined to
give it to her."
"So one of my judges has already condemned me, without hearing a word in my defense?" It was no
more than he expected. "Will I still be allowed to speak and present witnesses?"
"You have no witnesses," his uncle reminded him. "Tyrion, if you are guilty of this enormity, the Wall is a
kinder fate than you deserve. And if you are blameless ... there is fighting in the north, I know, but even
so it will be a safer place for you than King's Landing, whatever the outcome of this trial. The mob is
convinced of your guilt. Were you so foolish as to venture out into the streets, they would tear you limb
from limb."
"I can see how much that prospect upsets you."
"You are my brother's son."
"You might remind him of that."
"Do you think he would allow you to take the black if you were not his own blood, and Joanna's? Tywin


seems a hard man to you, I know, but he is no harder than he's had to be. Our own father was gentle and
amiable, but so weak his bannermen mocked him in their cups. Some saw fit to defy him openly. Other
lords borrowed our gold and never troubled to repay it. At court they japed of toothless lions. Even his
mistress stole from him. A woman scarcely one step above a whore, and she helped herself to my
mother's jewels! It fell to Tywin to restore House Lannister to its proper place. just as it fell to him to rule
this realm, when he was no more than twenty. He bore that heavy burden for twenty years, and all it
earned him was a mad king's envy. Instead of the honor he deserved, he was made to suffer slights
beyond count, yet he gave the Seven Kingdoms peace, plenty, and justice. He is a just man. You would
be wise to trust him."
Tyrion blinked in astonishment. Ser Kevan had always been solid, stolid, pragmatic; he had never heard
him speak with such fervor before. "You love him."
"He is my brother."
"I ... I will think on what you've said."
"Think carefully, then. And quickly."
He thought of little else that night, but come morning was no closer to deciding if his father could be
trusted. A servant brought him porridge and honey to break his fast, but all he could taste was bile at the
thought of confession. They will call me kinslayer till the end of my days. For a thousand years or more, if
I am remembered at all, it will be as the monstrous dwarf who poisoned his young nephew at his wedding
feast. The thought made him so bloody angry that he flung the bowl and spoon across the room and left a
smear of porridge on the wall. Ser Addam Marbrand looked at it curiously when he came to escort
Tyrion to trial, but had the good grace not to inquire.
"Lord Varys," the herald said, "master of whisperers."
Powdered, primped, and smelling of rosewater, the Spider rubbed his hands one over the other all the
time he spoke. Washing my life away,
Tyrion thought, as he listened to the eunuch's mournful account of how the Imp had schemed to part
Joffrey from the Hound's protection and spoken with Bronn of the benefits of having Tornmen as king.
Half-truths are worth more than outright lies. And unlike the others, Varys had documents; parchments
painstakingly filled with notes, details, dates, whole conversations. So much material that its recitation
took all day, and so much of it damning. Varys confirmed Tyrion's midnight visit to Grand Maester
Pycelle's chambers and the theft of his poisons and potions, confirmed the threat he'd made to Cersei the
night of their supper, confirmed every bloody thing but the poisoning itself. When Prince Oberyn asked
him how he could possibly know all this, not having been present at any of these events, the eunuch only
giggled and said, "My little birds told me. Knowing is their purpose, and mine."
How do I question a little bird? thought Tyrion. I should have had the eunuch's head off my first day in
King's Landing. Damn him. And damn me for whatever trust I put in him.
"Have we heard it all?" Lord Tywin asked his daughter as Varys left the hall.
"Almost," said Cersei. "I beg your leave to bring one final witness before you, on the morrow."
"As you wish," Lord Tywin said.


Oh, good, thought Tyrion savagely. After this farce of a trial, execution will almost come as a relief.
That night, as he sat by his window drinking, he heard voices outside his door. Ser Kevan, come for my
answer, he thought at once, but it was not his uncle who entered.
Tyrion rose to give Prince Oberyn a mocking bow. "Are judges permitted to visit the accused?"
"Princes are permitted to go where they will. Or so I told your guards." The Red Viper took a seat.
"My father will be displeased with you."
"The happiness of Tywin Lannister has never been high on my list of concerns. Is it Domish wine you're
drinking?"
"From the Arbor."
Oberyn made a face. "Red water. Did you poison him?"
"No. Did you?"
The prince smiled. "Do all dwarfs have tongues like yours? Someone is going to cut it out one of these
days."
"You are not the first to tell me that. Perhaps I should cut it out myself, it seems to make no end of
trouble."
"So I've seen. I think I may drink some of Lord Redwyne's grape juice after all."
"As you like." Tyrion served him a cup.
The man took a sip, sloshed it about in his mouth, and swallowed. "it will serve, for the moment. I will
send you up some strong Domish wine on the morrow." He took another sip. "I have turned up that
goldenhaired whore I was hoping for."
"So you found Chataya's?"
"At Chataya's I bedded the black-skinned girl. Alayaya, I believe she is called. Exquisite, despite the
stripes on her back. But the whore I referred to is your sister."
"Has she seduced you yet?" Tyrion asked, unsurprised.
Oberyn laughed aloud. "No, but she will if I meet her price. The queen has even hinted at marriage. Her
Grace needs another husband, and who better than a prince of Dome? Ellaria believes I should accept.
just the thought of Cersei in our bed makes her wet, the randy wench. And we should not even need to
pay the dwarf's penny. All your sister requires from me is one head, somewhat overlarge and missing a
nose."
"And?" said Tyrion, waiting.
By way of answer Prince Oberyn swirled his wine, and said, "When the Young Dragon conquered
Dome so long ago, he left the Lord of Highgarden to rule us after the Submission of Sunspear. This Tyrell


moved with his tail from keep to keep, chasing rebels and making certain that our knees stayed bent. He
would arrive in force, take a castle for his own, stay a moon's turn, and ride on to the next castle. It was
his custom to turn the lords out of their own chambers and take their beds for himself. One night he found
himself beneath a heavy velvet canopy. A sash hung down near the pillows, should he wish to summon a
wench. He had a taste for Domish women, this Lord Tyrell, and who can blame him? So he pulled upon
the sash, and when he did the canopy above him split open, and a hundred red scorpions fell down upon
his head. His death lit a fire that soon swept across Dome, undoing all the Young Dragon's victories in a
fortnight. The kneeling men stood up, and we were free again."
"I know the tale," said Tyrion. "What of it?"
"Just this. if I should ever find a sash beside my own bed, and pull on it, I would sooner have the
scorpions fall upon me than the queen in all her naked beauty."
Tyrion grinned. "We have that much in common, then."
"To be sure, I have much to thank your sister for. if not for her accusation at the feast, it might well be
you judging me instead of me judging you." The prince's eyes were dark with amusement. "Who knows
more of poison than the Red Viper of Dome, after all? Who has better reason to want to keep the Tyrells
far from the crown? And with Joffrey in his grave, by Dornish law the Iron Throne should pass next to his
sister Myrcella, who as it happens is betrothed to mine own nephew, thanks to you."
"Domish law does not apply." Tyrion had been so ensnared in his own
troubles that he'd never stopped to consider the succession. "My father will crown Tommen, count on
that."
"He may indeed crown Tommen, here in King's Landing. Which is not to say that my brother may not
crown Myrcella, down in Sunspear. Will your father make war on your niece on behalf of your nephew?
Will your sister?" He gave a shrug. "Perhaps I should marry Queen Cersei after all, on the condition that
she support her daughter over her son. Do you think she would?"
Never, Tyrion wanted to say, but the word caught in his throat. Cersei always resented being excluded
from power on account of her sex. If Dornish law applied in the west, she would be the heir to Casterly
Rock in her own right. She and Jaime were twins, but Cersei had come first into the world, and that was
all it took. By championing Myrcella's cause she would be championing her own. "I do not know how my
sister would choose, between Tornmen and Myrcella," he admitted. "It makes no matter. My father will
never give her that choice."
"Your father," said Prince Oberyn, "may not live forever."
Something about the way he said it made the hairs on the back of Tyrion's neck bristle. Suddenly he was
mindful of Elia again, and all that Oberyn had said as they crossed the field of ashes. He wants the head
that spoke the words, not just the hand that swung the sword. "It is not wise to speak such treasons in
the Red Keep, my prince. The little birds are listening."
"Let them. is it treason to say a man is mortal? Valar morghulis was how they said it in Valyria of old. All
men must die. And the Doom came and proved it true." The Dornishman went to the window to gaze out
into the night. "It is being said that you have no witnesses for us."
"I was hoping one look at this sweet face of mine would be enough to persuade you all of my


innocence."
"You are mistaken, my lord. The Fat Flower of Highgarden is quite convinced of your guilt, and
determined to see you die. His precious Margaery was drinking from that chalice too, as he has reminded
us half a hundred times."
"And you?" said Tyrion.
"Men are seldom as they appear. You look so very guilty that I am convinced of your innocence. Still,
you will likely be condemned. justice is in short supply this side of the mountains. There has been none
for Elia, Aegon, or Rhaenys. Why should there be any for you? Perhaps Joffrey's real killer was eaten by
a bear. That seems to happen quite often in King's Landing. Oh, wait, the bear was at Harrenhal, now I
remember."
"Is that the game we are playing?" Tyrion rubbed at his scarred nose. He had nothing to lose by telling
Oberyn the truth. "There was a bear at Harrenhal, and it did kill Ser Amory Lorch."
"How sad for him," said the Red Viper. "And for you. Do all noseless men lie so badly, I wonder?"
"I am not lying. Ser Amory dragged Princess Rhaenys out from under her father's bed and stabbed her
to death. He had some men-at-arms with him, but I do not know their names." He leaned forward. "It
was Ser Gregor Clegane who smashed Prince Aegon's head against a wall and raped your sister Elia
with his blood and brains still on his hands."
"What is this, now? Truth, from a Lannister?" Oberyn smiled coldly. "Your father gave the commands,
yes?"
"No." He spoke the lie without hesitation, and never stopped to ask himself why he should.
The Domishman raised one thin black eyebrow. "Such a dutiful son. And such a very feeble lie. It was
Lord Tywin who presented my sister's children to King Robert all wrapped up in crimson Lannister
cloaks."
"Perhaps you ought to have this discussion with my father. He was there. I was at the Rock, and still so
young that I thought the thing between my legs was only good for pissing."
"Yes, but you are here now, and in some difficulty, I would say. Your innocence may be as plain as the
scar on your face, but it will not save you. No more than your father will." The Dornish prince smiled.
"But I might."
"You?" Tyrion studied him. "You are one judge in three. How could you save me?"
"Not as your judge. As your champion."
Chapter 67
Jaime


A white book sat on a white table in a white room.
The room was round, its walls of whitewashed stone hung with white woolen tapestries. It formed the
first floor of White Sword Tower, a slender structure of four stories built into an angle of the castle wall
overlooking the bay. The undercroft held arms and armor, the second and third floors the small spare
sleeping cells of the six brothers of the Kingsguard.
One of those cells had been his for eighteen years, but this morning he had moved his things to the
topmost floor, which was given over entirely to the Lord Commander's apartments. Those rooms were
spare as well, though spacious; and they were above the outer walls, which meant he would have a view
of the sea. I will like that, he thought. The view, and all the rest.
As pale as the room, Jaime sat by the book in his Kingsguard whites, waiting for his Sworn Brothers. A
longsword hung from his hip. From the wrong hip. Before he had always wom his sword on his left, and
drawn it across his body when he unsheathed. He had shifted it to his right hip this morning, so as to be
able to draw it with his left hand in the same manner, but the weight of it felt strange there, and when he
had tried to pull the blade from the scabbard the whole motion seemed clumsy and unnatural. His clothing
fit badly as well. He had donned the winter raiment of the Kingsguard, a tunic and breeches of bleached
white wool and a heavy white cloak, but it all seemed to hang loose on him.
Jaime had spent his days at his brother's trial, standing well to the
back of the hall. Either Tyrion never saw him there or he did not know him, but that was no surprise.
Half the court no longer seemed to know him. I am a stranger in my own House. His son was dead, his
father had disowned him, and his sister ... she had not allowed him to be alone with her once, after that
first day in the royal sept where Joffrey lay amongst the candles. Even when they bore him across the city
to his tomb in the Great Sept of Baelor, Cersei kept a careful distance.
He looked about the Round Room once more. White wool hangings covered the walls, and there was a
white shield and two crossed longswords mounted above the hearth. The chair behind the table was old
black oak, with cushions of blanched cowhide, the leather worn thin. Worn by the bony arse of Barristan
the Bold and Ser Gerold Hightower before him, by Prince Aemon the Dragonknight, Ser Ryam
Redwyne, and the Demon of Darry, by Ser Duncan the Tall and the Pale Griffin Alyn Connington. How
could the Kingslayer belong in such exalted company?
Yet here he was.
The table itself was old weirwood, pale as bone, carved in the shape of a huge shield supported by three
white stallions. By tradition the Lord Commander sat at the top of the shield, and the brothers three to a
side, on the rare occasions when all seven were assembled. The book that rested by his elbow was
massive; two feet tall and a foot and a half wide, a thousand pages thick, fine white vellum bound
between covers of bleached white leather with gold hinges and fastenings. The Book of the Brothers was
its formal name, but more often it was simply called the White Book.
Within the White Book was the history of the Kingsguard. Every knight who'd ever served had a page,
to record his name and deeds for all time. On the top left-hand corner of each page was drawn the shield
the man had carried at the time he was chosen, inked in rich colors. Down in the bottom right corner was
the shield of the Kingsguard; snow-white, empty, pure. The upper shields were all different; the lower
shields were all the same. in the space between were written the facts of each man's life and service. The
heraldic drawings and illuminations were done by septons sent from the Great Sept of Baelor three times


a year, but it was the duty of the Lord Commander to keep the entries up to date.
My duty, now Once he learned to write with his left hand, that is. The White Book was well behind. The
deaths of Ser Mandon Moore and Ser Preston Greenfield needed to be entered, and the brief bloody
Kingsguard service of Sandor Clegane as well. New pages must be started for Ser Balon Swann, Ser
Osmund Kettleblack, and the Knight of Flowers. I will need to summon a septon to draw their shields.
Ser Barristan Selmy had preceded Jaime as Lord Commander. The shield atop his page showed the
arms of House Selmy: three stalks of
wheat, yellow, on a brown field. Jaime was amused, though unsurprised, to find that Ser Barristan had
taken the time to record his own dismissal before leaving the castle.
Ser Barristan of House Selmy. Firstborn son of Ser Lyonel Selmy of Harvest Hall. Served as squire to
Ser Manfred Swann. Named "the Bold" in his 1 Oth year, when he donned borrowed armor to appear
as a mystery knight in the tourney at Blackhaven, where he was defeated and unmasked by Duncan,
Prince of Dragonflies. Knighted in his 16th year by King Aegon V Targaryen, after performing great feats
of prowess as a mystery knight in the winter tourney at King's Landing, defeating Prince Duncan the
Small and Ser Duncan the Tall, Lord Commander of the Kingsguard. Slew Maelys the Monstrous, last of
the Blackfyre Pretenders, in single combat during the War of the Ninepenny Kings. Defeated Lormelle
Long Lance and Cedrik Storm, the Bastard of Bronzegate. Named to the Kingsguard in his 23rd year,
by Lord Commander Ser Gerold Hightower. Defended the passage against all challengers in the tourney
of the Silver Bridge. Victor in the m6l6e at Maidenpool. Brought King Aerys II to safety during the
Defiance of Duskendale, despite an arrow wound in the chest. Avenged the murder of his Sworn
Brother, Ser Gwayne Gaunt. Rescued Lady feyne Swann and her septa from the Kingswood
Brotherhood, defeating Simon Toyne and the Smiling Knight, and slaying the former. In the Oldtown
tourney, defeated and unmasked the mystery knight Blackshield, revealing him as the Bastard of
Uplands. Sole champion of Lord Steffon's tourney at Storm's End, whereat he unhorsed Lord Robert
Baratheon, Prince Oberyn Martell, Lord Leyton Hightower, Lord [on Connington, Lord Jason Mallister,
and Prince Rhaegar Targaryen. Wounded by arrow, spear, and sword at the Battle of the Trident whilst
fighting beside his Sworn Brothers and Rhaegar Prince of Dragonstone. Pardoned, and named Lord
Commander of the Kingsguard, by King Robert I Baratheon. Served in the honor guard that brought
Lady Cersei of House Lannister to King's Landing to wed King Robert. Led the attack on Old Wyk
during Balon Greyjoy's Rebellion. Champion of the tourney at King's Landing, in his 57th year.
Dismissed from service by King loffrey I Baratheon in his 61st year, for reasons of advanced age.
The earlier part of Ser Barristan's storied career had been entered by Ser Gerold Hightower in a big
forceful hand. Selmy's own smaller and more elegant writing took over with the account of his wounding
on the Trident.
Jaime's own page was scant by comparison.
Ser Jaime of House Lannister. Firstborn son of Lord Tywin and Lady Joanna of Casterly Rock. Served
against the
Kingswood Brotherhood as squire to Lord Sumner Crakehall. Knighted in his 15th year by Ser Arthur
Dayne of the
Kingsguard, for valor in the field. Chosen for the Kingsguard in his 15th year by King Aerys II
Targaryen. During the


Sack of King's Landing, slew King Aerys II at the foot of the Iron Throne. Thereafter known as the
"Kingslayer."
Pardoned for his crime by King Robert I Baratheon. Served in the honor guard that brought his sister the
Lady Cersei
Lannister to King's Landing to wed King Robert. Champion in the tourney held at King's Landing on the
occasion of
their wedding.
Summed up like that, his life seemed a rather scant and mingy thing. Ser Barristan could have recorded a
few of his other tourney victories, at least. And Ser Gerold might have written a few more words about
the deeds he'd performed when Ser Arthur Dayne broke the Kingswood Brotherhood. He had saved
Lord Sumner's life as Big Belly Ben was about to smash his head in, though the outlaw had escaped him.
And he'd held his own against the Smiling Knight, though it was Ser Arthur who slew him. What a fight
that was, and what a foe. The Smiling Knight was a madman, cruelty and chivalry all jumbled up
together, but he did not know the meaning of fear. And Dayne, with Dawn in hand ... The outlaw's
longsword had so many notches by the end that Ser Arthur had stopped to let him fetch a new one. "It's
that white sword of yours I want," the robber knight told him as they resumed, though he was bleeding
from a dozen wounds by then. "Then you shall have it, ser," the Sword of the Morning replied, and made
an end of it.
The world was simpler in those days, Jaime thought, and men as well as swords were made of finer
steel. Or was it only that he had been fifteen? They were all in their graves now, the Sword of the
Morning and the Smiling Knight, the White Bull and Prince Lewyn, Ser Oswell Whent with his black
humor, earnest Jon Darry, Simon Toyne and his Kingswood Brotherhood, bluff old Sumner Crakehall.
And me, that boy I was ... when did he die, I wonder? When I donned the white cloak? When I opened
Aerys's throat? That boy had wanted to be Ser Arthur Dayne, but someplace along the way he had
become the Smiling Knight instead.
When he heard the door open, he closed the White Book and stood to receive his Sworn Brothers. Ser
Osmund Kettleblack was the first to arrive. He gave Jaime a grin, as if they were old brothers-in-arms.
"Ser Jaime," he said, "had you looked like this t'other night, I'd have known you at once."
"Would you indeed?" Jaime doubted that. The servants had bathed him, shaved him, and washed and
brushed his hair. When he looked in a glass, he no longer saw the man who had crossed the riverlands
with
Brienne ... but he did not see himself either. His face was thin and hollow, and he had lines under his
eyes. I look like some old man. "Stand by your seat, ser."
Kettleblack complied. The other Sworn Brothers filed in one by one. "Sers," Jaime said in a formal tone
when all five had assembled, "who guards the king?"
"My brothers Ser Osney and Ser Osfryd," Ser Osmund replied.
"And my brother Ser Garlan," said the Knight of Flowers.
"Will they keep him safe?"


"They will, my lord."
"Be seated, then." The words were ritual. Before the seven could meet in session, the king's safety must
be assured.
Ser Boros and Ser Meryn sat to his right, leaving an empty chair between them for Ser Arys Oakheart,
off in Dorne. Ser Osmund, Ser Balon, and Ser Loras took the seats to his left. The old and the new.
Jaime wondered if that meant anything. There had been times during its history where the Kingsguard had
been divided against itself, most notably and bitterly during the Dance of the Dragons. Was that
something he needed to fear as well?
It seemed queer to him to sit in the Lord Commander's seat where Barristan the Bold had sat for so
many years. And even queerer to sit here crippled. Nonetheless, it was his seat, and this was his
Kingsguard now. Tommen's seven.
Jaime had served with Meryn Trant and Boros Blount for years; adequate fighters, but Trant was sly and
cruel, and Blount a bag of growly air. Ser Balon Swann was better suited to his cloak, and of course the
Knight of Flowers was supposedly all a knight should be. The fifth man was a stranger to him, this
Osmund Kettleblack.
He wondered what Ser Arthur Dayne would have to say of this lot. "How is it that the Kingsguard has
fallen so low," most like. "It was my doing, " I would have to answer. "I opened the door, and did nothing
when the vermin began to crawl inside."
"The king is dead, " Jaime began. "My sister's son, a boy of thirteen, murdered at his own wedding feast
in his own hall. All five of you were present. All five of you were protecting him. And yet he's dead." He
waited to see what they would say to that, but none of them so much as cleared a throat. The Tyrell boy
is angry, and Balon Swann's ashamed, he judged. From the other three Jaime sensed only indifference.
"Did my brother do this thing?
he asked them bluntly. "Did Tyrion poison my nephew?"
Ser Balon shifted uncomfortably in his seat. Ser Boros made a fist. Ser Osmund gave a lazy shrug. It
was Meryn Trant who finally answered. "He filled Joffrey's cup with wine. That must have been when he
slipped the poison in."
"You are certain it was the wine that was poisoned?"
"What else?" said Ser Boros Blount. "The Imp emptied the dregs on the floor. Why, but to spill the wine
that might have proved him guilty?"
"He knew the wine was poisoned," said Ser Meryn.
Ser Balon Swann frowned. "The Imp was not alone on the dais. Far from it. That late in the feast, we
had people standing and moving about, changing places, slipping off to the privy, servants were coming
and going ... the king and queen had just opened the wedding pie, every eye was on them or those
thrice-damned doves. No one was watching the wine cup."
"Who else was on the dais?" asked Jaime.
Ser Meryn answered. "The king's family, the bride's family, Grand Maester Pycelle, the High Septon . . .


"
"There's your poisoner," suggested Ser Oswald Kettleblack with a sly grin. "Too holy by half, that old
man. Never liked the look o' him, myself." He laughed.
"No," the Knight of Flowers said, unamused. "Sansa Stark was the poisoner. You all forget, my sister
was drinking from that chalice as well. Sansa Stark was the only person in the hall who had reason to
want Margaery dead, as well as the king. By poisoning the wedding cup, she could hope to kill both of
them. And why did she run afterward, unless she was guilty?"
The boy makes sense. Tyrion might yet be innocent. No one was any closer to finding the girl, however.
Perhaps Jaime should look into that himself. For a start, it would be good to know how she had gotten
out of the castle. Varys may have a notion or two about that. No one knew the Red Keep better than the
eunuch.
That could wait, however. just now Jaime had more immediate concerns. You say you are the Lord
Commander of the Kingsguard, his father had said. Go do your duty. These five were not the brothers he
would have chosen, but they were the brothers he had; the time had come to take them in hand.
"Whoever did it," he told them, "Joffrey is dead, and the iron Throne belongs to Tornmen now. I mean
for him to sit on it until his hair turns white and his teeth fall out. And not from poison." Jaime turned to
Ser Boros Blount. The man had grown stout in recent years, though he was big-boned enough to carry it.
"Ser Boros, you look like a man who enjoys his food. Henceforth you'll taste everything Tommen eats or
drinks."
Ser Osmund Kettleblack laughed aloud and the Knight of Flowers smiled, but Ser Boros turned a deep
beet red. "I am no food taster! I am a knight of the Kingsguard!"
"Sad to say, you are." Cersei should never have stripped the man of his white cloak. But their father had
only compounded the shame by
restoring it. "My sister has told me how readily you yielded my nephew to Tyrion's sellswords. You will
find carrots and pease less threatening, I hope. When your Sworn Brothers are training in the yard with
sword and shield, you may train with spoon and trencher. Tornmen loves applecakes. Try not to let any
sellswords make off with them."
"You speak to me thus? You?"
"You should have died before you let Tommen be taken."
"As you died protecting Aerys, ser? " Ser Boros lurched to his feet, and clasped the hilt of his sword. "I
won't ... I won't suffer this. You should be the food taster, it seems to me. What else is a cripple good
for?"
Jaime smiled. "I agree. I am as unfit to guard the king as you are. So draw that sword you're fondling,
and we shall see how your two hands fare against my one. At the end one of us will be dead, and the
Kingsguard. will be improved." He rose. "Or, if you prefer, you may return to your duties."
"Bah!" Ser Boros hawked up a glob of green phlegm, spat it at Jaime's feet, and walked out, his sword
still in its sheath.


The man is craven, and a good thing. Though fat, aging, and never more than ordinary, Ser Boros could
still have hacked him into bloody pieces. But Boros does not know that, and neither must the rest. They
feared the man I was; the man I am they'd pity.
Jaime seated himself again and turned to Kettleblack. "Ser Osmund. I do not know you. I find that
curious. I've fought in tourneys, m6l6es, and battles throughout the Seven Kingdoms. I know of every
hedge knight, freerider, and upjumped squire of any skill who has ever presumed to break a lance in the
lists. So how is it that I have never heard of you, Ser Osmund?"
"That I couldn't say, my lord." He had a great wide smile on his face, did Ser Osmund, as if he and
Jaime were old comrades in arms playing some jolly little game. "I'm a soldier, though, not no tourney
knight."
"Where had you served, before my sister found you?"
"Here and there, my lord."
"I have been to Oldtown in the south and Winterfell in the north. I have been to Lannisport in the west,
and King's Landing in the east. But I have never been to Here. Nor There." For want of a finger, Jaime
pointed his stump at Ser Osmund's beak of a nose. "I will ask once more. Where have you served?"
"In the Stepstones. Some in the Disputed Lands. There's always fighting there. I rode with the Gallant
Men. We fought for Lys, and some for Tyrosh."
You fought for anyone who would pay you. "How did you come by your knighthood?"
"On a battlefield."
"Who knighted you?"
"Ser Robert ... Stone. He's dead now, my lord."
"To be sure." Ser Robert Stone might have been some bastard from the Vale, he supposed, selling his
sword in the Disputed Lands. On the other hand, he might be no more than a name Ser Osmund cobbled
together from a dead king and a castle wall. What was Gersei thinking when she gave this one a white
cloak?
At least Kettleblack would likely know how to use a sword and shield. Sellswords were seldom the
most honorable of men, but they had to have a certain skill at arms to stay alive. "Very well, ser," Jaime
said. "You may go."
The man's grin returned. He left swaggering.
"Ser Meryn." Jaime smiled at the sour knight with the rust-red hair and the pouches under his eyes. "I
have heard it said that Joffrey made use of you to chastise Sansa Stark." He turned the White Book
around one-handed. "Here, show me where it is in our vows that we swear to beat women and children."
"I did as His Grace commanded me. We are sworn to obey."
"Henceforth you will temper that obedience. My sister is Queen Regent. My father is the King's Hand. I
am Lord Commander of the Kingsguard. Obey us. None other."


Ser Meryn got a stubborn look on his face. "Are you telling us not to obey the king?"
"The king is eight. Our first duty is to protect him, which includes protecting him from himself. Use that
ugly thing you keep inside your helm. If Tommen wants you to saddle his horse, obey him. If he tells you
to kill his horse, come to me."
"Aye. As you command, my lord."
"Dismissed." As he left, Jaime turned to Ser Balon Swann. "Ser Balon, I have watched you tilt many a
time, and fought with and against you in melees. I'm told you proved your valor a hundred times over
during the Battle of the Blackwater. The Kingsguard is honored by your presence."
"The honor's mine, my lord." Ser Balon sounded wary.
"There is only one question I would put to you. You served us loyally, it's true ... but Varys tells me that
your brother rode with Renly and then Stannis, whilst your lord father chose not to call his banners at all
and remained behind the walls of Stonehelm all through the fighting."
"My father is an old man, my lord. Well past forty. His fighting days are done."
"And your brother?"
"Donnel was wounded in the battle and yielded to Ser Elwood Harte. He was ransomed afterward and
pledged his fealty to King Joffrey, as did many other captives."
"So he did," said Jaime. "Even so ... Renly, Stannis, Joffrey, Tommen how did he come to omit Balon
Greyjoy and Robb Stark? He might have been the first knight in the realm to swear fealty to all six kings."
Ser Balon's unease was plain. "Donnel erred, but he is Tommen's man now. You have my word."
"It's not Ser Donnel the Constant who concerns me. It's you." Jaime leaned forward. "What will you do
if brave Ser Donnel gives his sword to yet another usurper, and one day comes storming into the throne
room? And there you stand all in white, between your king and your blood. What will you do?"
"I ... my lord, that will never happen."
"It happened to me," Jaime said.
Swann wiped his brow with the sleeve of his white tunic.
"You have no answer?"
"My lord." Ser Balon drew himself up. "On my sword, on my honor, on my father's name, I swear ... I
shall not do as you did."
Jaime laughed. "Good. Return to your duties ... and tell Ser Donnel to add a weathervane to his shield."
And then he was alone with the Knight of Flowers.
Slim as a sword, lithe and fit, Ser Loras Tyrell wore a snowy linen tunic and white wool breeches, with a


gold belt around his waist and a gold rose clasping his fine silk cloak. His hair was a soft brown tumble,
and his eyes were brown as well, and bright with insolence. He thinks this is a tourney, and his tilt has just
been called. "Seventeen and a knight of the Kingsguard," said Jaime. "You must be proud. Prince Ae n
the Dragonknight was seventeen when he was named. Did you know that? "
"Yes, my lord."
"And did you know that I was fifteen?"
"That as well, my lord." He smiled.
Jaime hated that smile. "I was better than you, Ser Loras. I was bigger, I was stronger, and I was
quicker."
"And now you're older," the boy said. "My lord."
He had to laugh. This is too absurd. Tyrion would mock me unmercifully if he could hear me now,
comparing cocks with this green boy. "Older and wiser, ser. You should learn from me."
"As you learned from Ser Boros and Ser Meryn?"
That arrow hit too close to the mark. "I learned from the White Bull and Barristan the Bold," Jaime
snapped. "I learned from Ser Arthur Dayne, the Sword of the Morning, who could have slain all five of
you with his left hand while he was taking with a piss with the right. I learned from Prince Lewyn of
Dome and Ser Oswell Whent and Ser Jonothor Darry, good men every one."
"Dead men, every one."
He's me, Jaime realized suddenly. I am speaking to myself, as I was, all cocksure arrogance and empty
chivalry. This is what it does to you, to be too good too young.
As in a swordfight, sometimes it is best to try a different stroke. "It's said you fought magnificently in the
battle ... almost as well as Lord Renly's ghost beside you. A Sworn Brother has no secrets from his Lord
Commander. Tell me, ser. Who was wearing Renly's armor?"
For a moment Loras Tyrell looked as though he might refuse, but in the end he remembered his vows.
"My brother," he said sullenly. "Renly was taller than me, and broader in the chest. His armor was too
loose on me, but it suited Garlan well."
"Was the masquerade your notion, or his?"
"Lord Littlefinger suggested it. He said it would frighten Stannis's ignorant men-at-arms."
"And so it did." And some knights and lordlings too. "Well, you gave the singers something to make
rhymes about, I suppose that's not to be despised. What did you do with Renly?"
"I buried him with mine own hands, in a place he showed me once when I was a squire at Storm's End.
No one shall ever find him there to disturb his rest." He looked at Jaime defiantly. "I will defend King
Tommen with all my strength, I swear it. I will give my life for his if need be. But I will never betray Renly,
by word or deed. He was the king that should have been. He was the best of them."


The best dressed perhaps, Jaime thought, but for once he did not say it. The arrogance had gone out of
Ser Loras the moment he began to speak of Renly. He answered truly. He is proud and reckless and full
of piss, but he is not false. Not yet. "As you say. One more thing, and you may return to your duties."
"Yes, my lord?"
"I still have Brienne of Tarth in a tower cell."
The boy's mouth hardened. "A black cell would be better."
"You are certain that's what she deserves?"
"She deserves death. I told Renly that a woman had no place in the Rainbow Guard. She won the melee
with a trick."
"I seem to recall another knight who was fond of tricks. He once rode a mare in heat against a foe
mounted on a badtempered stallion. What sort of trickery did Brienne use?"
Ser Loras flushed. "She leapt ... it makes no matter. She won, I grant her that. His Grace put a rainbow
cloak around her shoulders. And she killed him, Or let him die."
"A large difference there." The difference between my crime and the shame of Boros Blount,
"She had sworn to protect him. Ser Emmon Cuy, Ser Robar Royce, Ser Parmen Crane, they'd swom as
well. How could anyone have hurt him, with her inside his tent and the others just outside? Unless they
were part of it."
"There were five of you at the wedding feast," Jaime pointed out. "How could Joffrey die? Unless you
were part of it?"
Ser Loras drew himself up stiffly. "There was nothing we could have done."
"The wench says the same. She grieves for Renly as you do. I promise you, I never grieve for Aerys.
Brienne's ugly, and pighead stubborn. But she lacks the wits to be a liar, and she is loyal past the point of
sense. She swore an oath to bring me to King's Landing, and here I sit. This hand I lost ... well, that was
my doing as much as hers. Considering all she did to protect me, I have no doubt that she would have
fought for Renly, had there been a foe to fight. But a shadow? " Jaime shook his head. "Draw your
sword, Ser Loras. Show me how you'd fight a shadow. I should like to see that."
Ser Loras made no move to rise. "She fled," he said. "She and Catelyn Stark, they left him in his blood
and ran. Why would they, if it was not their work? " He stared at the table. "Renly gave me the van.
Otherwise it would have been me helping him don his armor. He often entrusted that task to me. We had
... we had prayed together that night. I left him with her. Ser Parmen and Ser Emmon were guarding the
tent, and Ser Robar Royce was there as well. Ser Emmon swore Brienne had. . . although. .
"Yes?" Jaime prompted, sensing a doubt.
"The gorget was cut through. One clean stroke, through a steel gorget. Renly's armor was the best, the
finest steel. How could she do that? I tried myself, and it was not possible. She's freakish strong for a
woman, but even the Mountain would have needed a heavy axe. And why armor him and then cut his
throat?" He gave Jaime a confused look. "If not her, though ... how could it be a shadow?"


"Ask her." Jaime came to a decision. "Go to her cell. Ask your questions and hear her answers. If you
are still convinced that she murdered Lord Renly, I will see that she answers for it. The choice will be
yours. Accuse her, or release her. All I ask is that you judge her fairly, on your honor as a knight."
Ser Loras stood. "I shall. On my honor."
"We are done, then."
The younger man started for the door. But there he turned back. "Renly thought she was absurd. A
woman dressed in man's mail, pretending to be a knight."
"If he'd ever seen her in pink satin and Myrish lace, he would not have complained."
"I asked him why he kept her close, if he thought her so grotesque. He said that all his other knights
wanted things of him, castles or honors or riches, but all that Brienne wanted was to die for him. When I
saw him all bloody, with her fled and the three of them unharmed ... if she's innocent, then Robar and
Emmon..." He could not seem to say the words.
Jaime had not stopped to consider that aspect of it. "I would have done the same, ser," The lie came
easy, but Ser Loras seemed grateful for it.
When he was gone, the Lord Commander sat alone in the white room, wondering. The Knight of
Flowers had been so mad with grief for Renly that he had cut down two of his own Sworn Brothers, but
it had never occurred to Jaime to do the same with the five who had failed Joffrey. He was my son, my
secret son ... What am I, if I do not lift the hand I have left to avenge mine own blood and seed? He
ought to kill Ser Boros at least, just to be rid of him.
He looked at his stump and grimaced. I must do something about that. if the late Ser Jacelyn. Bywater
could wear an iron hand, he should have a gold one. Cersei might like that. A golden hand to stroke her
golden hair, and hold her hard against me.
His hand could wait, though. There were other things to tend to first. There were other debts to pay.
Chapter 68
SANSA
The ladder to the forecastle was steep and splintery, so Sansa accepted a hand up from Lothor Brune.
Ser Lothor, she had to remind herself; the man had been knighted for his valor in the Battle of the
Blackwater. Though no proper knight would wear those patched brown breeches and scuffed boots, nor
that cracked and waterstained leather jerkin. A square-faced stocky man with a squashed nose and a
mat of nappy grey hair, Brune spoke seldom. He is stronger than he looks, though. She could tell by the
ease with which he lifted her, as if she weighed nothing at all.
Off the bow of the Merling King stretched a bare and stony strand, windswept, treeless, and uninviting.
Even so, it made a welcome sight. They had been a long while clawing their way back on course. The


last storm had swept them out of sight of land, and sent such waves crashing over the sides of the galley
that Sansa had been certain they were all going to drown. Two men had been swept overboard, she had
heard old Oswell saying, and another had fallen from the mast and broken his neck.
She had seldom ventured out on deck herself. Her little cabin was dank and cold, but Sansa had been
sick for most of the voyage ... sick with terror, sick with fever, or seasick ... she could keep nothing
down, and even sleep came hard. Whenever she closed her eyes she saw Joffrey tearing at his collar,
clawing at the soft skin of his throat, dying with flakes of pie crust on his lips and wine stains on his
doublet. And the wind keening in the lines reminded her of the terrible thin sucking sound he'd made as
he fought to draw in air. Sometimes she dreamed of Tyrion
as well. "He did nothing," she told Littlefinger once, when he paid a visit to her cabin to see if she were
feeling any better.
"He did not kill Joffrey, true, but the dwarf's hands are far from clean. He had a wife before you, did you
know that?"
"He told me."
"And did he tell you that when he grew bored with her, he made a gift of her to his father's guardsmen?
He might have done the same to you, in time. Shed no tears for the Imp, my lady."
The wind ran salty fingers through her hair, and Sansa shivered. Even this close to shore, the rolling of
the ship made her tummy queasy. She desperately needed a bath and a change of clothes. I must look as
haggard as a corpse, and smell of vomit.
Lord Petyr came up beside her, cheerful as ever. "Good morrow. The salt air is bracing, don't you
think? It always sharpens my appetite." He put a sympathetic arm about her shoulders. "Are you quite
well? You look so pale."
"It's only my tummy. The seasickness."
"A little wine will be good for that. We'll get you a cup, as soon as we're ashore." Petyr pointed to
where an old flint tower stood outlined against a bleak grey sky, the breakers crashing on the rocks
beneath it. "Cheerful, is it not? I fear there's no safe anchorage here. We'll put ashore in a boat."
"Here?" She did not want to go ashore here. The Fingers were a dismal place, she'd heard, and there
was something forlorn and desolate about the little tower. "Couldn't I stay on the ship until we make sail
for White Harbor? "
"From here the King turns east for Braavos. Without us."
"But ... my lord, you said... you said we were sailing home."
"And there it stands, miserable as it is. My ancestral home. It has no name, I fear. A great lord's seat
ought to have a name, wouldn't you agree? Winterfell, the Eyrie, Riverrun, those are castles. Lord of
Harrenhal now, that has a sweet ring to it, but what was I before? Lord of Sheepshit and Master of the
Drearfort? It lacks a certain something." His grey-green eyes regarded her innocently. "You look
distraught. Did you think we were making for Winterfell, sweetling? Winterfell has been taken, burned,
and sacked. All those you knew and loved are dead. What northmen who have not fallen to the ironmen
are warring amongst themselves. Even the Wall is under attack. Winterfell was the home of your


childhood, Sansa, but you are no longer a child. You're a woman grown, and you need to make your
own home."
"But not here," she said, dismayed. "It looks so. .
". . . small and bleak and mean? It's all that, and less. The Fingers are a lovely place, if you happen to be
a stone. But have no fear, we shan't
stay more than a fortnight. I expect your aunt is already riding to meet us." He smiled. "The Lady Lysa
and I are to be wed."
"Wed?" Sansa was stunned. "You and my aunt?"
"The Lord of Harrenhal and the Lady of the Eyrie."
You said it was my mother you loved. But of course Lady Catelyn was dead, so even if she had loved
Petyr secretly and given him her maidenhood, it made no matter now.
"So silent, my lady?" said Petyr. "I was certain you would wish to give me your blessing. It is a rare thing
for a boy born heir to stones and sheep pellets to wed the daughter of Hoster Tully and the widow of Jon
Arryn."
"I ... I pray you will have long years together, and many children, and be very happy in one another." It
had been years since Sansa last saw her mother's sister. She will be kind to me for my mother's sake,
surely. She's my own blood. And the Vale of Arryn was beautiful, all the songs said so. Perhaps it would
not be so terrible to stay here for a time.
Lothor and old Oswell rowed them ashore. Sansa huddled in the bow under her cloak with the hood
drawn up against the wind, wondering what awaited her. Servants emerged from the tower to meet them;
a thin old woman and a fat middle-aged one, two ancient white-haired men, and a girl of two or three
with a sty on one eye. When they recognized Lord Petyr they knelt on the rocks. "My household," he
said. "I don't know the child. Another of Kella's bastards, I suppose. She pops one out every few years."
The two old men waded out up to their thighs to lift Sansa from the boat so she would not get her skirts
wet. Oswell and Lothor splashed their way ashore, as did Littlefinger himself. He gave the old woman a
kiss on the cheek and grinned at the younger one. "Who fathered this one, Kella? "
The fat woman laughed. "I can't rightly say, m'lord. I'm not one for telling them no."
"And all the local lads are grateful, I am quite sure."
"It is good to have you home, my lord," said one old man. He looked to be at least eighty, but he wore a
studded brigantine and a longsword at his side. "How long will you be in residence?"
"As short a time as possible, Bryen, have no fear. Is the place habitable just now, would you say?"
"If we knew you was coming we would have laid down fresh rushes, m'lord," said the crone. "There's a
dung fire burning."
"Nothing says home like the smell of burning dung." Petyr turned to Sansa. "Grisel was my wet nurse,
but she keeps my castle now. Umfred's my steward, and Bryen - didn't I name you captain of the guard


the last time 1 was here?"
"You did, my lord. You said you'd be getting some more men too, but you never did. Me and the dogs
stand all the watches."
"And very well, I'm sure. No one has made off with any of my rocks or sheep pellets, I see that plainly."
Petyr gestured toward the fat woman. "Kella minds my vast herds. How many sheep do I have at
present, Kella?"
She had to think a moment. "Three and twenty, m'lord. There was nine and twenty, but Bryen's dogs
killed one and we butchered some others and salted down the meat."
"Ah, cold salt mutton. I must be home. When I break my fast on gulls' eggs and seaweed soup, I'll be
certain of it."
"If you like, m'lord," said the old woman Grisel.
Lord Petyr made a face. "Come, let's see if my hall is as dreary as I recall." He led them up the strand
over rocks slick with rotting seaweed. A handful of sheep were wandering about the base of the flint
tower, grazing on the thin grass that grew between the sheepfold and thatched stable. Sansa had to step
carefully; there were pellets everywhere.
Within, the tower seemed even smaller. An open stone stair wound round the inside wall, from
undercroft to roof. Each floor was but a single room. The servants lived and slept in the kitchen at ground
level, sharing the space with a huge brindled mastiff and a half-dozen sheepdogs. Above that was a
modest hall, and higher still the bedchamber. There were no windows, but arrowslits were embedded in
the outer wall at intervals along the curve of the stair. Above the hearth hung a broken longsword and a
battered oaken shield, its paint cracked and flaking.
The device painted on the shield was one Sansa did not know; a grey stone head with fiery eyes, upon a
light green field. "My grandfather's shield," Petyr explained when he saw her gazing at it. "His own father
was born in Braavos and came to the Vale as a sellsword in the hire of Lord Corbray, so my grandfather
took the head of the Titan as his sigil when he was knighted."
"It's very fierce," said Sansa.
"Rather too fierce, for an amiable fellow like me," said Petyr. "I much prefer my mockingbird."
Oswell made two more trips out to the Merling King to offload provisions. Among the loads he brought
ashore were several casks of wine. Petyr poured Sansa a cup, as promised. "Here, my lady, that should
help your tummy, I would hope."
Having solid ground beneath her feet had helped already, but Sansa dutifully lifted the goblet with both
hands and took a sip. The wine was very fine; an Arbor vintage, she thought. it tasted of oak and fruit
and hot summer nights, the flavors blossoming in her mouth like flowers
opening to the sun. She only prayed that she could keep it down. Lord Petyr was being so kind, she did
not want to spoil it all by retching on him.
He was studying her over his own goblet, his bright grey-green eyes full of ... was it amusement? Or
something else? Sansa was not certain. "Grisel," he called to the old woman, "bring some food up.


Nothing too heavy, my lady has a tender tummy. Some fruit might serve, perhaps. Oswell's brought some
oranges and pomegranates from the King."
"Yes, m'lord."
"Might I have a hot bath as well?" asked Sansa.
"I'll have Kella draw some water, m'lady."
Sansa took another sip of wine and tried to think of some polite conversation, but Lord Petyr saved her
the effort. When Grisel and the other servants had gone, he said, "Lysa will not come alone. Before she
arrives, we must be clear on who you are."
"Who I ... I don't understand."
"Varys has informers everywhere. If Sansa Stark should be seen in the Vale, the eunuch will know within
a moon's turn, and that would create unfortunate ... complications. it is not safe to be a Stark just now.
So we shall tell Lysa's people that you are my natural daughter."
"Natural?" Sansa was aghast. "You mean, a bastard?"
"Well, you can scarcely be my trueborn daughter. I've never taken a wife, that's well known. What
should you be called?"
"I ... I could call myself after my mother..."
"Catelyn? A bit too obvious ... but after my mother, that would serve. Alayne. Do you like it?"
"Alayne is pretty." Sansa hoped she would remember. "But couldn't I be the trueborn daughter of some
knight in your service? Perhaps he died gallantly in the battle, and. . ."
"I have no gallant knights in my service, Alayne. Such a tale would draw unwanted questions as a corpse
draws crows. It is rude to pry into the origins of a man's natural children, however." He cocked his head.
"So, who are you?"
"Alayne ... Stone, would it be?" When he nodded, she said, "But who is my mother?"
"Kella?"
"Please no," she said, mortified.
"I was teasing. Your mother was a gentlewoman of Braavos, daughter of a merchant prince. We met in
Gulltown when I had charge of the port. She died giving you birth, and entrusted you to the Faith. I have
some devotional books you can look over. Learn to quote from them. Nothing discourages unwanted
questions as much as a flow of pious bleating. In any case, at your flowering you decided you did not
wish to be a septa
and wrote to me. That was the first I knew of your existence." He fingered his beard. "Do you think you
can remember all that?"
"I hope. It will be like playing a game, won't it?"


"Are you fond of games, Alayne?"
The new name would take some getting used to. "Games? I ... I suppose it would depend..."
Grisel reappeared before he could say more, balancing a large platter. She set it down between them.
There were apples and pears and pomegranates, some sad-looking grapes, a huge blood orange. The
old woman had brought a round of bread as well, and a crock of butter. Petyr cut a pomegranate in two
with his dagger, offering half to Sansa. "You should try and eat, my lady."
"Thank you, my lord." Pomegranate seeds were so messy; Sansa chose a pear instead, and took a small
delicate bite. It was very ripe. The juice ran down her chin.
Lord Petyr loosened a seed with the point of his dagger. "You must miss your father terribly, I know.
Lord Eddard was a brave man, honest and loyal ... but quite a hopeless player." He brought the seed to
his mouth with the knife. "In King's Landing, there are two sorts of people. The players and the pieces."
"And I was a piece?" She dreaded the answer.
"Yes, but don't let that trouble you. You're still half a child. Every man's a piece to start with, and every
maid as well. Even some who think they are players." He ate another seed. "Cersei, for one. She thinks
herself sly, but in truth she is utterly predictable. Her strength rests on her beauty, birth, and riches. Only
the first of those is truly her own, and it will soon desert her. I pity her then. She wants power, but has no
notion what to do with it when she gets it. Everyone wants something, Alayne. And when you know what
a man wants you know who he is, and how to move him."
"As you moved Ser Dontos to poison Joffrey?" It had to have been Dontos, she had concluded.
Littlefinger laughed. "Ser Dontos the Red was a skin of wine with legs. He could never have been trusted
with a task of such enormity. He would have bungled it or betrayed me. No, all Dontos had to do was
lead you from the castle . . . and make certain you wore your silver hair net."
The black amethysts. "But... if not Dontos, who? Do you have other ... pieces?"
"You could turn King's Landing upside down and not find a single man with a mockingbird sewn over his
heart, but that does not mean I am friendless." Petyr went to the steps. "Oswell, come up here and let the
Lady Sansa have a look at you."
The old man appeared a few moments later, grinning and bowing. Sansa eyed him uncertainly. "What am
I supposed to see?"
"Do you know him?" asked Petyr.
"No."
"Look closer."
She studied the old man's lined windburnt face, hook nose, white hair, and huge knuckly hands. There
was something familiar about him, yet Sansa had to shake her head. "I don't. I never saw Oswell before I
got into his boat, I'm certain."


Oswell grinned, showing a mouth of crooked teeth. "No, but m'lady might of met my three sons."
It was the "three sons," and that smile too. "Kettleblack!" Sansa's eyes went wide. "You're a
Kettleblack!"
"Aye, m'lady, as it please you."
"She's beside herself with joy." Lord Petyr dismissed him with a wave, and returned to the pomegranate
again as Oswell shuffled down the steps. "Tell me, Alayne - which is more dangerous, the dagger
brandished by an enemy, or the hidden one pressed to your back by someone you never even see?"
"The hidden dagger."
"There's a clever girl." He smiled, his thin lips bright red from the pomegranate seeds. "When the Imp
sent off her guards, the queen had Ser Lancel hire sellswords for her. Lancel found her the Kettleblacks,
which delighted your little lord husband, since the lads were in his pay through his man Bronn." He
chuckled. "But it was me who told Oswell to get his sons to King's Landing when I learned that Bronn
was looking for swords. Three hidden daggers, Alayne, now perfectly placed."
"So one of the Kettleblacks put the poison in Joff 's cup?" Ser Osmund had been near the king all night,
she remembered.
"Did I say that?" Lord Petyr cut the blood orange in two with his dagger and offered half to Sansa. "The
lads are far too treacherous to be part of any such scheme ... and Osmund has become especially
unreliable since he joined the Kingsguard. That white cloak does things to a man, I find. Even a man like
him." He tilted his chin back and squeezed the blood orange, so the juice ran down into his mouth. "I love
the juice but I loathe the sticky fingers," he complained, wiping his hands. "Clean hands, Sansa. Whatever
you do, make certain your hands are clean."
Sansa spooned up some juice from her own orange. "But if it wasn't the Kettleblacks and it wasn't Ser
Dontos ... you weren't even in the city, and it couldn't have been Tyrion . . .
"No more guesses, sweetling?"
She shook her head. "I don't . . .
Petyr smiled. "I will wager you that at some point during the evening someone told you that your hair net
was crooked and straightened it for you."
Sansa raised a hand to her mouth. "You cannot mean ... she wanted to take me to Highgarden, to marry
me to her grandson..."
"Gentle, pious, good-hearted Willas Tyrell. Be grateful you were spared, he would have bored you
spitless. The old woman is not boring, though, I'll grant her that. A fearsome old harridan, and not near as
frail as she pretends. When I came to Highgarden to dicker for Margaery's hand, she let her lord son
bluster while she asked pointed questions about Joffrey's nature. I praised him to the skies, to be sure.. .
whilst my men spread disturbing tales amongst Lord Tyrell's servants. That is how the game is played.
"I also planted the notion of Ser Loras taking the white. Not that I suggested it, that would have been
too crude. But men in my party supplied grisly tales about how the mob had killed Ser Preston Greenfield
and raped the Lady Lollys, and slipped a few silvers to Lord Tyrell's army of singers to sing of Ryam


Redwyne, Serwyn of the Mirror Shield, and Prince Aemon the Dragonknight. A harp can be as
dangerous as a sword, in the right hands.
"Mace Tyrell actually thought it was his own idea to make Ser Loras's inclusion in the Kingsguard part of
the marriage contract. Who better to protect his daughter than her splendid knightly brother? And it
relieved him of the difficult task of trying to find lands and a bride for a third son, never easy, and doubly
difficult in Ser Loras's case.
"Be that as it may. Lady Olenna was not about to let Joff harm her precious darling granddaughter, but
unlike her son she also realized that under all his flowers and finery, Ser Loras is as hot-tempered as
Jaime Lannister. Toss Joffrey, Margaery, and Loras in a pot, and you've got the makings for kingslayer
stew. The old woman understood something else as well. Her son was determined to make Margaery a
queen, and for that he needed a king ... but he did not need /offrey. We shall have another wedding soon,
wait and see. Margaery will marry Tommen. She'll keep her queenly crown and her maidenhead, neither
of which she especially wants, but what does that matter? The great western alliance will be preserved ...
for a time, at least."
Margaery and Tommen. Sansa did not know what to say. She had liked Margaery Tyrell, and her small
sharp grandmother as well. She thought wistfully of Highgarden with its courtyards and musicians, and the
pleasure barges on the Mander; a far cry from this bleak shore. At least I am safe here. loffrey is dead,
he cannot hurt me anymore, and I am only a bastard girl now Alayne Stone has no husband and no claim.
And her aunt would soon be here as well. The long nightmare of King's Landing was behind her, and her
mockery of a marriage as well. She could make herself a new home here, just as Petyr said.
It was eight long days until Lysa Arryn arrived. On five of them it
rained, while Sansa sat bored and restless by the fire, beside the old blind dog. He was too sick and
toothless to walk guard with Bryen anymore, and mostly all he did was sleep, but when she patted him he
whined and licked her hand, and after that they were fast friends. When the rains let up, Petyr walked
with her around his holdings, which took less than half a day. He owned a lot of rocks, just as he had
said. There was one place where the tide came jetting up out of a blowhole to shoot thirty feet into the
air, and another where someone had chiseled the seven-pointed star of the new gods upon a boulder.
Petyr said that marked one of the places the Andals had landed, when they came across the sea to wrest
the Vale from the First Men.
Farther inland a dozen families lived in huts of piled stone beside a peat bog. "Mine own smallfolk,"
Petyr said, though only the oldest seemed to know him. There was a hermit's cave on his land as well,
but no hermit. "He's dead now, but when I was a boy my father took me to see him. The man had not
washed in forty years, so you can imagine how he smelled, but supposedly he had the gift of prophecy.
He groped me a bit and said I would be a great man, and for that my father gave him a skin of wine."
Petyr snorted. "I would have told him the same thing for half a cup."
Finally, on a grey windy afternoon, Bryen came running back to the tower with his dogs barking at his
heels, to announce that riders were approaching from the southwest. "Lysa," Lord Petyr said. "Come,
Alayne, let us greet her."
They put on their cloaks and waited outside. The riders numbered no more than a score; a very modest
escort, for the Lady of the Eyrie. Three maids rode with her, and a dozen household knights in mail and
plate. She brought a septon as well, and a handsome singer with a wisp of a mustache and long sandy
curls.


Could that be my aunt? Lady Lysa was two years younger than Mother, but this woman looked ten
years older. Thick auburn tresses fell down past her waist, but beneath the costly velvet gown and
jeweled bodice her body sagged and bulged. Her face was pink and painted, her breasts heavy, her
limbs thick. She was taller than Littlefinger, and heavier; nor did she show any grace in the clumsy way
she climbed down off her horse.
Petyr knelt to kiss her fingers. "The king's small council commanded me to woo and win you, my lady.
Do you think you might have me for your lord and husband?"
Lady Lysa pooched her lips and pulled him up to plant a kiss upon his cheek. "Oh, mayhaps I could be
persuaded." She giggled. "Have you brought gifts to melt my heart?"
"The king's peace."
"Oh, poo to the peace, what else have you brought me?"
"My daughter." Littlefinger beckoned Sansa forward with a hand. "My lady, allow me to present you
Alayne Stone."
Lysa Arryn did not seem greatly pleased to see her. Sansa did a deep curtsy, her head bowed. "A
bastard?" she heard her aunt say. "Petyr, have you been wicked? Who was her mother?"
"The wench is dead. I'd hoped to take Alayne to the Eyrie."
"What am I to do with her there?"
"I have a few notions," said Lord Petyr. "But just now I am more interested in what I might do with you,
my lady."
All the sternness melted off her aunt's round pink face, and for a moment Sansa thought Lysa Arryn was
about to cry. "Sweet Petyr, I've missed you so, you don't know, you can't know. Yohn Royce has been
stirring up all sorts of trouble, demanding that I call my banners and go to war. And the others all swarm
around me, Hunter and Corbray and that dreadful Nestor Royce, all wanting to wed me and take my son
to ward, but none of them truly love me. Only you, Petyr. I've dreamed of you so long."
"And I of you, my lady." He slid an arm around behind her and kissed her on the neck. "How soon can
we be wed?"
"Now," said Lady Lysa, sighing. "I've brought my own septon, and a singer, and mead for the wedding
feast."
"Here?" That did not please him. "I'd sooner wed you at the Eyrie, with your whole court in attendance."
"Poo to my court. I have waited so long, I could not bear to wait another moment." She put her arms
around him. "I want to share your bed tonight, my sweet. I want us to make another child, a brother for
Robert or a sweet little daughter."
"I dream of that as well, sweetling. Yet there is much to be gained from a great public wedding, with all
the Vale - "
"No." She stamped a foot. "I want you now, this very night. And I must warn you, after all these years of


silence and whisperings, I mean to scream when you love me. I am going to scream so loud they'll hear
me in the Eyrie!"
"Perhaps I could bed you now, and wed you later?"
The Lady Lysa giggled like a girl. "Oh, Petyr Baelish, you are so wicked. No, I say no, I am the Lady of
the Eyrie, and I command you to wed me this very moment!"
Petyr gave a shrug. "As my lady commands, then. I am helpless before you, as ever."
They said their vows within the hour, standing beneath a sky-blue canopy as the sun sank in the west.
Afterward trestle tables were set up beneath the small flint tower, and they feasted on quail, venison, and
roast boar, washing it down with a fine light mead. Torches were lit as dusk crept in. Lysa's singer
played "The Vow Unspoken" and "Seasons of My Love" and "Two Hearts That Beat as One." Several
younger knights even asked Sansa to dance. Her aunt danced as well, her skirts whirling when Petyr
spun her in his arms. Mead and marriage had taken years off Lady Lysa. She laughed at everything so
long as she held her husband's hand, and her eyes seemed to glow whenever she looked at him.
When it was time for the bedding, her knights carried her up to the tower, stripping her as they went and
shouting bawdy jests. Tyrion spared me that, Sansa remembered. It would not have been so bad being
undressed for a man she loved, by friends who loved them both. By Joffrey, though ... She shuddered.
Her aunt had brought only three ladies with her, so they pressed Sansa to help them undress Lord Petyr
and march him up to his marriage bed. He submitted with good grace and a wicked tongue, giving as
good as he got. By the time they had gotten him into the tower and out of his clothes, the other women
were flushed, with laces unlaced, kirtles crooked, and skirts in disarray. But Littlefinger only smiled at
Sansa as they marched him up to the bedchamber where his lady wife was waiting.
Lady Lysa and Lord Petyr had the third-story bedchamber to themselves, but the tower was small ...
and true to her word, her aunt screamed. It had begun to rain outside, driving the feasters into the hall
one floor below, so they heard most every word. "Petyr," her aunt moaned. "Oh, Petyr, Petyr, sweet
Petyr, oh oh oh. There, Petyr, there. That's where you belong." Lady Lysa's singer launched into a
bawdy version of "Milady's Supper," but even his singing and playing could not drown out Lysa's cries.
"Make me a baby, Petyr," she screamed, "make me another sweet little baby. Oh, Petyr, my precious,
my precious, PEEEEEETYR!" Her last shriek was so loud that it set the dogs to barking, and two of her
aunt's ladies could scarce contain their mirth.
Sansa went down the steps and out into the night. A light rain was falling on the remains of the feast, but
the air smelled fresh and clean. The memory of her own wedding night with Tyrion was much with her. In
the dark, I am the Knight of Flowers, he had said. I could be good to you. But that was only another
Lannister lie. A dog can smell a lie, you know, the Hound had told her once. She could almost hear the
rough rasp of his voice. Look around you, and take a good whiff. They're all liars here, and every one
better than you. She wondered what had become of Sandor Clegane. Did he know that they'd killed
Joffrey? Would he care? He had been the prince's sworn shield for years.
She stayed outside for a long time. When at last she sought her own bed, wet and chilled, only the dim
glow of a peat fire lit the darkened hall. There was no sound from above. The young singer sat in a
corner,
playing a slow song to himself. One of her aunt's maids was kissing a knight in Lord Petyr's chair, their


hands busy beneath each other's clothing. Several men had drunk themselves to sleep, and one was in the
privy, being noisily sick. Sansa found Bryen's old blind dog in her little alcove beneath the steps, and lay
down next to him. He woke and licked her face. "You sad old hound," she said, ruffling his fur.
"Alayne." Her aunt's singer stood over her. "Sweet Alayne. I am Marillion. I saw you come in from the
rain. The night is chill and wet. Let me warm you."
The old dog raised his head and growled, but the singer gave him a cuff and sent him slinking off,
whimpering.
"Marillion?" she said, uncertain. "You are ... kind to think of me, but ... pray forgive me. I am very tired."
"And very beautiful. All night I have been making songs for you in my head. A lay for your eyes, a ballad
for your lips, a duet to your breasts. I will not sing them, though. They were poor things, unworthy of
such beauty." He sat on her bed and put his hand on her leg. "Let me sing to you with my body instead."
She caught a whiff of his breath. "You're drunk."
"I never get drunk. Mead only makes me merry. I am on fire." His hand slipped up to her thigh. "And
you as well."
"Unhand me. You forget yourself."
"Mercy. I have been singing love songs for hours. My blood is stirred. And yours, I know ... there's no
wench half so lusty as one bastard born. Are you wet for me?"
"I'm a maiden," she protested.
"Truly? Oh, Alayne, Alayne, my fair maid, give me the gift of your innocence. You will thank the gods
you did. I'll have you singing louder than the Lady Lysa."
Sansa jerked away from him, frightened. "If you don't leave me, my au - my father will hang you. Lord
Petyr."
"Littlefinger?" He chuckled. "Lady Lysa loves me well, and I am Lord Robert's favorite. If your father
offends me, I will destroy him with a verse." He put a hand on her breast, and squeezed. "Let's get you
out of these wet clothes. You wouldn't want them ripped, I know. Come, sweet lady, heed your heart - "
Sansa heard the soft sound of steel on leather. "Singer," a rough voice said, "best go, if you want to sing
again." The light was dim, but she saw a faint glimmer of a blade.
The singer saw it too. "Find your own wench - " The knife flashed, and he cried out. "You cut me!"
"I'll do worse, if you don't go."
And quick as that, Marillion was gone. The other remained, looming
over Sansa in the darkness. "Lord Petyr said watch out for you." It was Lothor Brune's voice, she
realized. Not the Hound's, no, how could it be? Of course it had to be Lothor ...
That night Sansa scarcely slept at all, but tossed and turned just as she had aboard the Merling King.


She dreamt of Joffrey dying, but as he clawed at his throat and the blood ran down across his fingers she
saw with horror that it was her brother Robb. And she dreamed of her wedding night too, of Tyrion's
eyes devouring her as she undressed. Only then he was bigger than Tyrion had any right to be, and when
he climbed into the bed his face was scarred only on one side. "I'll have a song from you," he rasped, and
Sansa woke and found the old blind dog beside her once again. "I wish that you were Lady," she said.
Come the morning, Grisel climbed up to the bedchamber to serve the lord and lady a tray of morning
bread, with butter, honey, fruit, and cream. She returned to say that Alayne was wanted. Sansa was still
drowsy from sleep. it took her a moment to remember that she was Alayne.
Lady Lysa was still abed, but Lord Petyr was up and dressed. "Your aunt wishes to speak with you," he
told Sansa, as he pulled on a boot. "I've told her who you are."
Gods be good. "I ... I thank you, my lord."
Petyr yanked on the other boot. "I've had about as much home as I can stomach. We'll leave for the
Eyrie this afternoon." He kissed his lady wife and licked a smear of honey off her lips, then headed down
the steps.
Sansa stood by the foot of the bed while her aunt ate a pear and studied her. "I see it now," the Lady
Lysa said, as she set the core aside. "You look so much like Catelyn."
"It's kind of you to say so."
"It was not meant as flattery. if truth be told, you look too much like Catelyn. Something must be done.
We shall darken your hair before we bring you back to the Eyrie, I think."
Darken my hair? "If it please you, Aunt Lysa."
"You must not call me that. No word of your presence here must be allowed to reach King's Landing. I
do not mean to have my son endangered." She nibbled the comer of a honeycomb. "I have kept the Vale
out of this war. Our harvest has been plentiful, the mountains protect us, and the Eyrie is impregnable.
Even so, it would not do to draw Lord Tywin's wroth down upon us." Lysa set the comb down and
licked honey from her fingers. "You were wed to Tyrion Lannister, Petyr says. That vile dwarf."
"They made me marry him. I never wanted it."
,'No more than I did," her aunt said. "Jon Arryn was no dwarf, but he was old. You may not think so to
see me now, but on the day we wed I
was so lovely I put your mother to shame. But all Jon desired was my father's swords, to aid his darling
boys. I should have refused him, but he was such an old man, how long could he live? Half his teeth were
gone, and his breath smelled like bad cheese. I cannot abide a man with foul breath. Petyr's breath is
always fresh ... he was the first man I ever kissed, you know. My father said he was too lowborn, but I
knew how high he'd rise. Jon gave him the customs for Gulltown to please me, but when he increased the
incomes tenfold my lord husband saw how clever he was and gave him other appointments, even brought
him to King's Landing to be master of coin. That was hard, to see him every day and still be wed to that
old cold man. Jon did his duty in the bedchamber, but he could no more give me pleasure than he could
give me children. His seed was old and weak. All my babies died but Robert, three girls and two boys.
All my sweet little babies dead, and that old man just went on and on with his stinking breath. So you
see, I have suffered too." Lady Lysa sniffed. "You do know that your poor mother is dead?"


"Tyrion told me," said Sansa. "He said the Freys murdered her at The Twins, with Robb."
Tears welled suddenly in Lady Lysa's eyes. "We are women alone now, you and I. Are you afraid,
child? Be brave. I would never turn away Cat's daughter. We are bound by blood." She beckoned
Sansa closer. "You may come kiss my cheek, Alayne."
Dutifully she approached and knelt beside the bed. Her aunt was drenched in sweet scent, though under
that was a sour milky smell. Her cheek tasted of paint and powder.
As Sansa stepped back, Lady Lysa caught her wrist. "Now tell me," she said sharply. "Are you with
child? The truth now, I will know if you lie."
"No," she said, startled by the question.
"You are a woman flowered, are you not?"
"Yes." Sansa knew the truth of her flowering could not be long hidden in the Eyrie. "Tyrion didn't ... he
never..." She could feel the blush creeping up her cheeks. "I am still a maid."
"Was the dwarf incapable?"
"No. He was only ... he was..." Kind? She could not say that, not here, not to this aunt who hated him
so. "He ... he had whores, my lady. He told me so."
"Whores." Lysa released her wrist. "Of course he did. What woman would bed such a creature, but for
gold? I should have killed the Imp when he was in my power, but he tricked me. He is full of low
cunning, that one. His sellsword slew my good Ser Vardis Egen. Catelyn should not have brought him
here, I told her that. She made off with our uncle too. That was wrong of her. The Blackfish was my
Knight of the Gate,
and since he left us the mountain clans are growing very bold. Petyr will soon set all that to rights,
though. I shall make him Lord Protector of the Vale." Her aunt smiled for the first time, almost warmly.
"He may not look as tall or strong as some, but he is worth more than all of them. Trust in him and do as
he says."
"I shall, Aunt ... my lady."
Lady Lysa seemed pleased by that. "I knew that boy Joffrey. He used to call my Robert cruel names,
and once he slapped him with a wooden sword. A man will tell you poison is dishonorable, but a
woman's honor is different. The Mother shaped us to protect our children, and our only dishonor is in
failure. You'll know that, when you have a child."
"A child?" said Sansa, uncertainly.
Lysa waved a hand negligently. "Not for many years. You are too young to be a mother. One day you
shall want children, though. just as you will want to marry."
"I ... I am married, my lady."
"Yes, but soon a widow. Be glad the Imp preferred his whores. It would not be fitting for my son to take


that dwarfs leavings, but as he never touched you ... How would you like to marry your cousin, the Lord
Robert? "
The thought made Sansa weary. All she knew of Robert Arryn was that he was a little boy, and sickly. It
is not me she wants her son to marry, it is my claim. No one will ever marry me for love. But lying came
easy to her now. "I ... can scarcely wait to meet him, my lady. But he is still a child, is he not?"
"He is eight. And not robust. But such a good boy, so bright and clever. He will be a great man, Alayne.
The seed is strong, my lord husband said before he died. His last words. The gods sometimes let us
glimpse the future as we lay dying. I see no reason why you should not be wed as soon as we know that
your Lannister husband is dead. A secret wedding, to be sure. The Lord of the Eyrie could scarcely be
thought to have married a bastard, that would not be fitting. The ravens should bring us the word from
King's Landing once the Imp's head rolls. You and Robert can be wed the next day, won't that be
joyous? it will be good for him to have a little companion. He played with Vardis Egen's boy when we
first returned to the Eyrie, and my steward's sons as well, but they were much too rough and I had no
choice but to send them away. Do you read well, Alayne? "
"Septa Mordane was good enough to say so."
'Robert has weak eyes, but he loves to be read to," Lady Lysa confided. "He likes stories about animals
the best. Do you know the little song about the chicken who dressed as a fox? I sing him that all the time,
he never grows tired of it. And he likes to play hopfrog and spin-the-sword
and come-into-my-castle, but you must always let him win. That's only proper, don't you think? He is
the Lord of the Eyrie, after all, you must never forget that. You are well born, and the Starks of Winterfell
were always proud, but Winterfell has fallen and you are really just a beggar now, so put that pride aside.
Gratitude will better become you, in your present circumstances. Yes, and obedience. My son will have a
grateful and obedient wife."
Chapter 69
JON
Day and night the axes rang.
Jon could not remember the last time he had slept. When he closed his eyes he dreamed of fighting;
when he woke he fought. Even in the King's Tower he could hear the ceaseless thunk of bronze and flint
and stolen steel biting into wood, and it was louder when he tried to rest in the warming shed atop the
Wall. Mance had sledgehammers at work as well, and long saws with teeth of bone and flint. Once, as
he was drifting off into an exhausted sleep, there came a great cracking from the haunted forest, and a
sentinel tree came crashing down in a cloud of dirt and needles.
He was awake when Owen came to him, lying restless under a pile of furs on the floor of the warming
shed. "Lord Snow," said Owen, shaking his shoulder, "the dawn." He gave Jon a hand to help pull him
back onto his feet. Others were waking as well, jostling one another as they pulled on their boots and
buckled their swordbelts in the close confines of the shed. No one spoke. They were all too tired for
talk. Few of them ever left the Wall these days. it took too long to ride up and down in the cage. Castle


Black had been abandoned to Maester Aemon, Ser Wynton Stout, and a few others too old or ill to
fight.
"I had a dream that the king had come," Owen said happily. "Maester Aemon sent a raven, and King
Robert came with all his strength. I dreamed I saw his golden banners."
Jon made himself smile. "That would be a welcome sight to see, Owen." Ignoring the twinge of pain in
his leg, he swept a black fur cloak about his shoulders, gathered up his crutch, and went out onto the
Wall to face another day.
A gust of wind sent icy tendrils wending through his long brown hair. Half a mile north, the wildling
encampments were stirring, their campfires sending up smoky fingers to scratch against the pale dawn
sky. Along the edge of the forest they had raised their tents of hide and fur, even a crude longhall of logs
and woven branches; there were horselines to the east, mammoths to the west, and men everywhere,
sharpening their swords, putting points on crude spears, donning makeshift armor of hide and horn and
bone. For every man that he could see, Jon knew there were a score unseen in the wood. The brush
gave them some shelter from the elements and hid them from the eyes of the hated crows.
Already their archers were stealing forward, pushing their rolling mantlets. "Here come our breakfast
arrows," Pyp announced cheerfully, as he did every morning. It's good that he can make a jape of it, Jon
thought. Someone has to. Three days ago, one of those breakfast arrows had caught Red Alyn of the
Rosewood in the leg. You could still see his body at the foot of the Wall, if you cared to lean out far
enough. Jon had to think that it was better for them to smile at Pyp's jest than to brood over Alyn's
corpse.
The mantlets were slanting wooden shields, wide enough for five of the free folk to hide behind. The
archers pushed them close, then knelt behind them to loose their arrows through slits in the wood. The
first time the wildlings rolled them out, Jon had called for fire arrows and set a half -dozen ablaze, but
after that Mance started covering them with raw hides. All the fire arrows in the world couldn't make
them catch now. The brothers had even started wagering as to which of the straw sentinels would collect
the most arrows before they were done. Dolorous Edd was leading with four, but Othell Yarwyck,
Tumberjon, and Watt of Long Lake had three apiece. It was Pyp who'd started naming the scarecrows
after their missing brothers, too. "It makes it seem as if there's more of us," he said.
"More of us with arrows in our bellies," Grenn complained, but the custom did seem to give his brothers
heart, so Jon let the names stand and the wagering continue.
On the edge of the Wall an ornate brass Myrish eye stood on three spindly legs. Maester Aemon had
once used it to peer at the stars, before his own eyes had failed him. Jon swung the tube down to have a
look at the foe. Even at this distance there was no mistaking Mance Rayder's huge white tent, sewn
together from the pelts of snow bears. The Myrish lenses brought the wildlings close enough for him to
make out faces. Of Mance himself he saw no sign this morning, but his woman Dalla was outside tending
the fire, while her sister Val milked a she-goat beside the tent. Dalla looked so big it was a wonder she
could move. The child must be coming very soon, Jon thought. He swiveled the eye east and searched
amongst the tents and trees till he found the turtle. That will be coming very soon as well. The wildlings
had skinned one of the dead mammoths during the night, and they were lashing the raw bloody hide over
the turtle's roof, one more layer on top of the sheepskins and pelts. The turtle had a rounded top and
eight huge wheels, and under the hides was a stout wooden frame. When the wildlings had begun
knocking it together, Satin thought they were building a ship. Not far wrong. The turtle was a hull turned
upside down and opened fore and aft; a longhall on wheels.


"It's done, isn't it?" asked Grenn.
"Near enough." Jon shoved away the eye. "It will come today, most like. Did you fill the barrels?"
"Every one. They froze hard during the night, Pyp checked."
Grenn had changed a great deal from the big, clumsy, red-necked boy Jon had first befriended. He had
grown half a foot, his chest and shoulders had thickened, and he had not cut his hair nor trimmed his
beard since the Fist of the First Men. It made him look as huge and shaggy as an aurochs, the mocking
name that Ser Alliser Thorne had hung on him during training. He looked weary now, though. When Jon
said as much, he nodded. "I heard their axes all night. Couldn't sleep for all the chopping."
"Then go sleep now."
"I don't need - "
"You do. I want you rested. Go on, I'm not going to let you sleep through the fight." He made himself
smile. "You're the only one who can move those bloody barrels."
Grenn went off muttering, and Jon returned to the far eye, searching the wildling camp. From time to
time an arrow would sail past overhead, but he had learned to ignore those. The range was long and the
angle was bad, the chances of being hit were small. He still saw no sign of Mance Rayder in the camp,
but he spied Tormund Giantsbane and two of his sons around the turtle. The sons were struggling with
the mammoth hide while Tormund gnawed on the roast leg of a goat and bellowed orders. Elsewhere he
found the wildling skinchanger, Varamyr Sixskins, walking through the trees with his shadowcat dogging
his heels.
When he heard the rattle of the winch chains and the iron groan of the cage door opening, he knew it
would be Hobb bringing their breakfast as he did every morning. The sight of Mance's turtle had robbed
Jon of his appetite. Their oil was all but gone, and the last barrel of pitch had been rolled off the Wall two
nights ago. They would soon run short of arrows as well, and there were no fletchers making more. And
the night before last, a raven had come from the west, from Ser Denys Mallister. Bowen Marsh had
chased the wildlings all the way to the Shadow Tower, it seemed, and then farther, down into the gloom
of the Gorge. At the Bridge of Skulls he had met the Weeper and three hundred wildlings and
won a bloody battle. But the victory had been a costly one. More than a hundred brothers slain, among
them Ser Endrew Tarth and Ser Aladale Wynch. The Old Pomegranate himself had been carried back to
the Shadow Tower sorely wounded. Maester Mullin was tending him, but it would be some time before
he was fit to return to Castle Black.
When he had read that, Jon had dispatched Zei to Mole's Town on their best horse to plead with the
villagers to help man the Wall. She never returned. When he sent Mully after her, he came back to report
the whole village deserted, even the brothel. Most likely Zei had followed them, straight down the
kingsroad. Maybe we should all do the same, Jon reflected glumly.
He made himself eat, hungry or no. Bad enough he could not sleep, he could not go on without food as
well. Besides, this might be my last meal. It might be the last meal for all of us. So it was that Jon had a
belly full of bread, bacon, onions, and cheese when he heard Horse shout, "IT'S COMING!"
No one needed to ask what "it" was. Nor did Jon need the maester's Myrish eye to see it creeping out


from amongst the tents and trees. "It doesn't really look much like a turtle," Satin commented. "Turtles
don't have fur."
"Most of them don't have wheels either," said Pyp.
"Sound the warhorn," Jon commanded, and Kegs blew two long blasts, to wake Grenn and the other
sleepers who'd had the watch during the night. If the wildlings were coming, the Wall would need every
man. Gods know, we have fewenough. Jon looked at Pyp and Kegs and Satin, Horse and Owen the
Oaf, Tim Tangletongue, Mully, Spare Boot, and the rest, and tried to imagine them going belly to belly
and blade to blade against a hundred screaming wildlings, in the freezing darkness of that tunnel, with only
a few iron bars between them. That was what it would come down to, unless they could stop the turtle
before the gate was breached.
"It's big," Horse said.
Pyp smacked his lips. "Think of all the soup it will make." The jape was stillborn. Even Pyp sounded
tired. He looks half dead, thought Jon, but so do we all. The King-beyond-the-Wall had so many men
that he could throw fresh attackers at them every time, but the same handful of black brothers had to
meet every assault, and it had worn them ragged.
The men beneath the wood and hides would be pulling hard, Jon knew, putting their shoulders into it,
straining to keep the wheels turning, but once the turtle was flush against the gate they would exchange
their ropes for axes. At least Mance was not sending his mammoths today. Jon was glad of that. Their
awesome strength was wasted on the Wall, and their size only made them easy targets. The last had been
a day and a half in the dying, its mournful trumpetings terrible to hear.
The turtle crept slowly through stones and stumps and brush. The earlier attacks had cost the free folk a
hundred lives or more. Most still lay where they had fallen. In the lulls the crows would come and pay
them court, but now the birds fled screeching. They liked the look of that turtle no more than he did.
Satin, Horse, and the others were looking to him, Jon knew, waiting for his orders. He was so tired, he
hardly knew any more. The Wall is mine, he reminded himself. "Owen, Horse, to the catapults. Kegs,
you and Spare Boot on the scorpions. The rest of you string your bows. Fire arrows. Let's see if we can
burn it." It was likely to be a futile gesture, Jon knew, but it had to be better than standing helpless.
Cumbersome and slow-moving, the turtle made for an easy shot, and his archers and crossbowmen
soon turned it into a lumbering wooden hedgehog. . . but the wet hides protected it, just as they had the
mantlets, and the flaming arrows guttered out almost as soon as they struck. Jon cursed under his breath.
"Scorpions," he commanded. "Catapults."
The scorpions bolts punched deep into the pelts, but did no more damage than the fire arrows. The
rocks went bouncing off the turtle's roof, leaving dimples in the thick layers of hides. A stone from one of
the trebuchets might have crushed it, but the one machine was still broken, and the wildlings had gone
wide around the area where the other dropped its loads.
"Jon, it's still coming," said Owen the Oaf.
He could see that for himself. Inch by inch, yard by yard, the turtle crept closer, rolling, rumbling and
rocking as it crossed the killing ground. Once the wildlings got it flush against the Wall, it would give them
all the shelter they needed while their axes crashed through the hastily-repaired outer gates. Inside, under
the ice, they would clear the loose rubble from the tunnel in a matter of hours, and then there would be


nothing to stop them but two iron gates, a few half-frozen corpses, and whatever brothers Jon cared to
throw in their path, to fight and die down in the dark.
To his left, the catapult made a thunk and filled the air with spinning stones. They plonked down on the
turtle like hail, and caromed harmlessly aside. The wildling archers were still loosing arrows from behind
their mantlets. One thudded into the face of a straw man, and Pyp said, "Four for Watt of Long Lake!
We have a tie! " The next shaft whistled past his own ear, however. "Fie!" he shouted down. "I'm not in
the tourney! "
"The hides won't burn," Jon said, as much to himself as to the others. Their only hope was to try and
crush the turtle when it reached the Wall. For that, they needed boulders. No matter how stoutly built the
turtle was, a huge chunk of rock crashing straight down on top of it from seven hundred feet was bound
to do some damage. "Grenn, Owen, Kegs, it's time."
Alongside the warming shed a dozen stout oaken barrels were lined up in a row. They were full of
crushed rock; the gravel that the black brothers customarily spread on the footpaths to give themselves
better footing atop the Wall. Yesterday, after he'd seen the free folk covering the turtle with sheepskins,
Jon told Grerm to pour water into the barrels, as much as they would take. The water would seep down
through the crushed stone, and overnight the whole thing would freeze solid. It was the nearest thing to a
boulder they were going to get.
"Why do we need to freeze it?" Grerm had asked him. "Why don't we just roll the barrels off the way
they are?"
Jon answered, "If they crash against the Wall on the way down they'll burst, and loose gravel will spray
everywhere. We don't want to rain pebbles on the whoresons."
He put his shoulder to the one barrel with Grenn, while Kegs and Owen were wrestling with another.
Together they rocked it back and forth to break the grip of the ice that had formed around its bottom.
"The bugger weighs a ton," said Grenn.
"Tip it over and roll it," Jon said. "Careful, if it rolls over your foot you'll end up like Spare Boot."
Once the barrel was on its side, Jon grabbed a torch and waved it above the surface of the Wall, back
and forth, just enough to melt the ice a little. The thin film of water helped the barrel roll more easily. Too
easily, in fact; they almost lost it. But finally, with four of them pooling their efforts, they rolled their
boulder to the edge and stood it up again.
They had four of the big oak barrels lined up above the gate by the time Pyp shouted, "There's a turtle at
our door!" Jon braced his injured leg and leaned out for a look. Hoardings, Marsh should have built
hoardings. So many things they should have done. The wildlings were dragging the dead giants away
from the gate. Horse and Mully were dropping rocks down on them, and Jon thought he saw one man go
down, but the stones were too small to have any effect on the turtle itself. He wondered what the free
folk would do about the dead mammoth in the path, but then he saw. The turtle was almost as wide as a
longhall, so they simply pushed it over the carcass. His leg twitched, but Horse caught his arm and drew
him back to safety. "You shouldn't lean out like that," the boy said.
"We should have built hoardings." Jon thought he could hear the crash of axes on wood, but that was
probably just fear ringing in his ears. He looked to Grenn. "Do it."
Grerm got behind a barrel, put his shoulder against it, grunted, and began to push. Owen and Mully


moved to help him. They shoved the barrel out a foot, and then another. And suddenly it was gone.
They heard the thump as it struck the Wall on the way down, and
then, much louder, the crash and crack of splintering wood, followed by shouts and screams. Satin
whooped and Owen the Oaf danced in circles, while Pyp leaned out and called, "The turtle was stuffed
full of rabbits! Look at them hop away!"
"Again," Jon barked, and Grerm and Kegs slammed their shoulders against the next barrel, and sent it
tottering out into empty air.
By the time they were done, the front of Mance's turtle was a crushed and splintered ruin, and wildlings
were spilling out the other end and scrambling for their camp. Satin scooped up his crossbow and sent a
few quarrels after them as they ran, to see them off the faster. Grenn was grinning through his beard, Pyp
was making japes, and none of them would die today.
On the morrow, though ... Jon glanced toward the shed. Eight barrels of gravel remained where twelve
had stood a few moments before. He realized how tired he was then, and how much his wound was
hurting. I need to sleep. A few hours, at least. He could go to Maester Aemon for some dreamwine, that
would help. "I am going down to the King's Tower," he told them. "Call me if Mance gets up to anything.
Pyp, you have the Wall."
"Me?" said Pyp.
"Him?" said Grenn.
Smiling, he left them to it and rode down in the cage.
A cup of dreamwine did help, as it happened. No sooner had he stretched out on the narrow bed in his
cell than sleep took him. His dreams were strange and formless, full of strange voices, shouts and cries,
and the sound of a warhorn, blowing low and loud, a single deep booming note that lingered in the air.
When he awoke the sky was black outside the arrow slit that served him for a window, and four men he
did not know were standing over him. One held a lantern. "Jon Snow," the tallest of them said brusquely,
"pull on your boots and come with us."
His first groggy thought was that somehow the Wall had fallen whilst he slept, that Mance Rayder had
sent more giants or another turtle and broken through the gate. But when he rubbed his eyes he saw that
the strangers were all in black. They're men of the Night's Watch, Jon realized. "Come where? Who are
you?"
The tall man gestured, and two of the others pulled Jon from the bed. With the lantern leading the way
they marched him from his cell and up a half turn of stair, to the Old Bear's solar. He saw Maester
Aemon standing by the fire, his hands folded around the head of a blackthorn cane. Septon Cellador was
half drunk as usual, and Ser Wynton Stout was asleep in a window seat. The other brothers were
strangers to him. All but one.
Immaculate in his fur-trimmed cloak and polished boots, Ser Alliser
Thorne turned to say, "Here's the tumcloak now, my lord. Ned Stark's bastard, of Winterfell."


"I'm no tumcloak, Thorne," Jon said coldly.
"We shall see." in the leather chair behind the table where the Old Bear wrote his letters sat a big, broad,
jowly man Jon did not know. "Yes, we shall see," he said again. "You will not deny that you are Jon
Snow, I hope? Stark's bastard?"
"Lord Snow, he likes to call himself." Ser Alliser was a spare, slim man, compact and sinewy, and just
now his flinty eyes were dark with amusement.
"You're the one who named me Lord Snow," said Jon. Ser Alliser had been fond of naming the boys he
trained, during his time as Castle Black's master-at-arms. The Old Bear had sent Thorne to
Eastwatch-by-the-Sea. These others must be Eastwatch men. The bird reached Cotter Pyke and he's
sent us help. "How many men have you brought?" he asked the man behind the table.
"It's me who'll ask the questions," the jowly man replied. "You've been charged with oathbreaking,
cowardice, and desertion, Jon Snow. Do you deny that you abandoned your brothers to die on the Fist
of the First Men and joined the wildling Mance Rayder, this self-styled King-beyondthe-Wall? "
"Abandoned ... ?" Jon almost choked on the word.
Maester Aemon spoke up then. "My lord, Donal Noye and I discussed these issues when Jon Snow
first returned to us, and were satisfied by Jon's explanations."
"Well, I am not satisfied, Maester," said the jowly man. "I will hear these explanations for myself. Yes I
will!"
Jon swallowed his anger. "I abandoned no one. I left the Fist with Qhorin Halfhand to scout the Skirling
Pass. I joined the wildlings under orders. The Halfhand feared that Mance might have found the Horn of
Winter..."
"The Horn of Winter?" Ser Alliser chuckled. "Were you commanded to count their snarks as well, Lord
Snow?"
"No, but I counted their giants as best I could."
"Ser," snapped the jowly man. "You will address Ser Alliser as ser, and myself as m'lord. I am Janos
Slynt, Lord of Harrenhal, and commander here at Castle Black until such time as Bowen Marsh returns
with his garrison. You will grant us our courtesies, yes. I will not suffer to hear an anointed knight like the
good Ser Alliser mocked by a traitor's bastard." He raised a hand and pointed a meaty finger at Jon's
face. "Do you deny that you took a wildling woman into your bed?"
"No." Jon's grief over Ygritte was too fresh for him to deny her now. "No, my lord."
"I suppose it was also the Halfhand who commanded you to fuck this unwashed whore?" Ser Alliser
asked with a smirk.
"Ser. She was no whore, ser. The Halfhand told me not to balk, whatever the wildlings asked of me, but
... I will not deny that I went beyond what I had to do, that I ... cared for her."
"You admit to being an oathbreaker, then," said Janos Slynt.


Half the men at Castle Black visited Mole's Town from time to time to dig for buried treasures in the
brothel, Jon knew, but he would not dishonor Ygritte by equating her with the Mole's Town whores. "I
broke my vows with a woman. I admit that. Yes."
"Yes, m'lord!" When Slynt scowled, his jowls quivered. He was as broad as the Old Bear had been,
and no doubt would be as bald if he lived to Mormont's age. Half his hair was gone already, though he
could not have been more than forty.
"Yes, my lord," Jon said. "I rode with the wildlings and ate with them, as the Halfhand commanded me,
and I shared my furs with Ygritte. But I swear to you, I never turned my cloak. I escaped the Magnar as
soon as I could, and never took up arms against my brothers or the realm."
Lord Slynt's small eyes studied him. "Ser Glendon," he commanded, "bring in the other prisoner."
Ser Glendon was the tall man who had dragged Jon from his bed. Four other men went with him when
he left the room, but they were back soon enough with a captive, a small, sallow, battered man fettered
hand and foot. He had a single eyebrow, a widow's peak, and a mustache that looked like a smear of
dirt on his upper lip, but his face was swollen and mottled with bruises, and most of his front teeth had
been knocked out.
The Eastwatch men threw the captive roughly to the floor. Lord Slynt frowned down at him. "Is this the
one you spoke of?"
The captive blinked yellow eyes. "Aye." Not until that instant did Jon recognize Rattleshirt. He is a
different man without his armor, he thought. "Aye," the wildling repeated, "he's the craven killed the
Halfhand. Up in the Frostfangs, it were, after we hunted down Vother crows and killed them, every one.
We would have done for this one too, only he begged P his worthless life, offered t' join us if we'd have
him. The Halfhand swore he'd see the craven dead first, but the wolf ripped Qhorin half t' pieces and this
one opened his throat." He gave Jon a cracktooth smile then, and spat blood on his foot.
"Well?" Janos Slynt demanded of Jon harshly. "Do you deny it? Or will you claim Qhorin commanded
you to kill him?"
"He told me..." The words came hard. "He told me to do whatever they asked of me."
Slynt looked about the solar, at the other Eastwatch men. "Does this boy think I fell off a turnip wagon
onto my head?"
"Your lies won't save you now, Lord Snow," warned Ser Alliser Thorne. "We'll have the truth from you,
bastard."
"I've told you the truth. Our garrons were failing, and Rattleshirt was close behind us. Qhorin told me to
pretend to join the wildlings. 'You must not balk, whatever is asked of you,' he said. He knew they would
make me kill him. Rattleshirt was going to kill him anyway, he knew that too."
"So now you claim the great Qhorin Halfhand feared this creature?" Slynt looked at Rattleshirt, and
snorted.
"All men fear the Lord o' Bones," the wildling grumbled. Ser Glendon kicked him, and he lapsed back
into silence.


"I never said that," Jon insisted.
Slynt slammed a fist on the table. "I heard you! Ser Alliser had your measure true enough, it seems. You
lie through your bastard's teeth. Well, I will not suffer it. I will not! You might have fooled this crippled
blacksmith, but not Janos Slynt! Oh, no. Janos Slynt does not swallow lies so easily. Did you think my
skull was stuffed with cabbage?"
"I don't know what your skull is stuffed with. My lord."
"Lord Snow is nothing if not arrogant," said Ser Alliser. "He murdered Qhorin just as his fellow
turncloaks did Lord Mormont. it would not surprise me to learn that it was all part of the same fell plot.
Benjen Stark may well have a hand in all this as well. For all we know, he is sitting in Mance Rayder's
tent even now. You know these Starks, my lord."
"I do," said Janos Slynt. "I know them too well."
Jon peeled off his glove and showed them his burned hand. "I burned my hand defending Lord Mormont
from a wight. And my uncle was a man of honor. He would never have betrayed his vows."
"No more than you?" mocked Ser Alliser.
Septon Cellador cleared his throat. "Lord Slynt," he said, "this boy refused to swear his vows properly in
the sept, but went beyond the Wall to say his words before a heart tree. His father's gods, he said, but
they are wildling gods as well."
"They are the gods of the north, Septon." Maester Aemon was courteous, but firm. "My lords, when
Donal Noye was slain, it was this young man Jon Snow who took the Wall and held it, against all the fury
of the north. He has proved himself valiant, loyal, and resourceful. Were it not for him, you would have
found Mance Rayder sitting here when you arrived, Lord Slynt. You are doing him a great wrong. Jon
Snow was Lord Mormont's own steward and squire. He was chosen for that duty because the Lord
Commander saw much promise in him. As do I" "Promise?" said Slynt. "Well, promise may turn false.
Qhorin Halfhand's blood is on his hands. Mormont trusted him, you say, but what of that? I know what it
is to be betrayed by men you trusted. Oh, yes.
And I know the ways of wolves as well." He pointed at Jon's face. "Your father died a traitor."
"My father was murdered." Jon was past caring what they did to him, but he would not suffer any more
lies about his father.
Slynt purpled. "Murder? You insolent pup. King Robert was not even cold when Lord Eddard moved
against his son." He rose to his feet; a shorter man than Mormont, but thick about the chest and arms,
with a gut to match. A small gold spear tipped with red enamel pinned his cloak at the shoulder. "Your
father died by the sword, but he was highborn, a King's Hand. For you, a noose will serve. Ser Alliser,
take this tumcloak to an ice cell."
"My lord is wise." Ser Alliser seized Jon by the arm.
Jon yanked away and grabbed the knight by the throat with such ferocity that he lifted him off the floor.
He would have throttled him if the Eastwatch men had not pulled him off. Thorne staggered back,
rubbing the marks Jon's fingers had left on his neck. "You see for yourselves, brothers. The boy is a
wildling."


Chapter 70
TYRION
When dawn broke, he found he could not face the thought of food. By evenfall I may stand condemned.
His belly was acid with bile, and his nose itched. Tyrion scratched at it with the point of his knife. One
last witness to endure, then my turn. But what to do? Deny everything? Accuse Sansa and Ser Dontos?
Confess, in the hope of spending the rest of his days on the Wall? Let the dice fly and pray the Red Viper
could defeat Ser Gregor Clegane?
Tyrion stabbed listlessly at a greasy grey sausage, wishing it were his sister. It is bloody cold on the
Wall, but at least I would be shut of Cersei. He did not think he would make much of a ranger, but the
Night's Watch needed clever men as well as strong ones. Lord Commander Mormont had said as much,
when Tyrion had visited Castle Black. There are those inconvenient vows, though. It would mean the end
of his marriage and whatever claim he might ever have made for Casterly Rock, but he did not seem
destined to enjoy either in any case. And he seemed to recall that there was a brothel in a nearby village.
it was not a life he'd ever dreamed of, but it was life. And all he had to do to earn it was trust in his
father, stand up on his little stunted legs, and say, "Yes, I did it, I confess." That was the part that tied his
bowels in knots. He almost wished he had done it, since it seemed he must suffer for it anyway.
"My lord?" said Podrick Payne. "They're here, my lord. Ser Addam. And the gold cloaks. They wait
without."
"Pod, tell me true ... do you think I did it?"
The boy hesitated. When he tried to speak, all he managed to produce was a weak sputter.
I am doomed. Tyrion sighed. "No need to answer. You've been a good squire to me. Better than I
deserved. Whatever happens, I thank you for your leal service."
Ser Addarn Marbrand waited at the door with six gold cloaks. He had nothing to say this morning, it
seemed. Another good man who thinks me a kinslayer. Tyrion summoned all the dignity he could find and
waddled down the steps. He could feel them all watching him as he crossed the yard; the guards on the
walls, the grooms by the stables, the scullions and washerwomen and serving girls. Inside the throne
room, knights and lordlings moved aside to let them through, and whispered to their ladies.
No sooner had Tyrion taken his place before the judges than another group of gold cloaks led in Shae.
A cold hand tightened round his heart. Varys betrayed her, he thought. Then he remembered. No. I
betrayed her myself. I should have left her with Lollys. Of course they'd question Sansa's maids, I'd do
the same. Tyrion rubbed at the slick scar where his nose had been, wondering why Cersei had bothered.
Shae knows nothing that can hurt me.
"They plotted it together," she said, this girl he'd loved. "The Imp and Lady Sansa plotted it after the
Young Wolf died. Sansa wanted revenge for her brother and Tyrion meant to have the throne. He was


going to kill his sister next, and then his own lord father, so he could be Hand for Prince Tommen. But
after a year or so, before Tornmen got too old, he would have killed him too, so as to take the crown for
his own head."
"How could you know all this?" demanded Prince Oberyn. "Why would the Imp divulge such plans to
his wife's maid?"
"I overheard some, m'lord," said Shae, "and m'lady let things slip too. But most I had from his own lips. I
wasn't only Lady Sansa's maid. I was his whore, all the time he was here in King's Landing. On the
morning of the wedding, he dragged me down where they keep the dragon skulls and fucked me there
with the monsters all around. And when I cried, he said I ought to be more grateful, that it wasn't every
girl who got to be the king's whore. That was when he told me how he meant to be king. He said that
poor boy Joffrey would never know his bride the way he was knowing me." She started sobbing then. "I
never meant to be a whore, m'lords. I was to be married. A squire, he was, and a good brave boy,
gentle born. But the Imp saw me at the Green Fork and put the boy I meant to marry in the front rank of
the van, and after he was killed he sent his wildlings to bring me to his tent. Shagga, the big one, and
Timett with the burned eye. He said if I didn't pleasure him, he'd give me to
them, so I did. Then he brought me to the city, so I'd be close when he wanted me. He made me do
such shameful things . . . "
Prince Oberyn looked curious. "What sorts of things?"
"Unspeakable things." As the tears rolled slowly down that pretty face, no doubt every man in the hall
wanted to take Shae in his arms and comfort her. "With my mouth and ... other parts, m'lord. All my
parts. He used me every way there was, and ... he used to make me tell him how big he was. My giant, I
had to call him, my giant of Lannister."
Oswald Kettleblack was the first to laugh. Boros and Meryn joined in, then Cersei, Ser Loras, and more
lords and ladies than he could count. The sudden gale of mirth made the rafters ring and shook the Iron
Throne. "It's true," Shae protested. "My giant of Lannister." The laughter swelled twice as loud. Their
mouths were twisted in merriment, their bellies shook. Some laughed so hard that snot flew from their
nostrils.
I saved you all, Tyrion thought. I saved this vile city and all your worthless lives. There were hundreds in
the throne room, every one of them laughing but his father. Or so it seemed. Even the Red Viper
chortled, and Mace Tyrell looked like to bust a gut, but Lord Tywin Lannister sat between them as if
made of stone, his fingers steepled beneath his chin.
Tyrion pushed forward. "MY LORDS!" he shouted. He had to shout, to have any hope of being heard.
His father raised a hand. Bit by bit, the hall grew silent.
"Get this lying whore out of my sight," said Tyrion, "and I will give you your confession."
Lord Tywin nodded, gestured. Shae looked half in terror as the gold cloaks formed up around her. Her
eyes met Tyrion's as they marched her from the wall. Was it shame he saw there, or fear? He wondered
what Cersei had promised her. You will get the gold or jewels, whatever it was you asked for, he thought
as he watched her back recede, but before the moon has turned she'll have you entertaining the gold
cloaks in their barracks.


Tyrion stared up at his father's hard green eyes with their flecks of cold bright gold. "Guilty," he said, "so
guilty. Is that what you wanted to hear? "
Lord Tywin said nothing. Mace Tyrell nodded. Prince Oberyn looked mildly disappointed. "You admit
you poisoned the king?"
"Nothing of the sort," said Tyrion. "Of Joffrey's death I am innocent. I am guilty of a more monstrous
crime." He took a step toward his father. "I was born. I lived. I am guilty of being a dwarf, I confess it.
And no matter how many times my good father forgave me, I have persisted in my infamy."
"This is folly, Tyrion," declared Lord Tywin. "Speak to the matter at hand. You are not on trial for being
a dwarf."
"That is where you err, my lord. I have been on trial for being a dwarf my entire life."
"Have you nothing to say in your defense?"
"Nothing but this: I did not do it. Yet now I wish I had." He turned to face the hall, that sea of pale faces.
"I wish I had enough poison for you all. You make me sorry that I am not the monster you would have
me be, yet there it is. I am innocent, but I will get no justice here. You leave me no choice but to appeal
to the gods. I demand trial by battle."
"Have you taken leave of your wits?" his father said.
"No, I've found them. I demand trial by battle!"
His sweet sister could not have been more pleased. "He has that right, my lords," she reminded the
judges. "Let the gods judge. Ser Gregor Clegane will stand for Joffrey. He returned to the city the night
before last, to put his sword at my service."
Lord Tywin's face was so dark that for half a heartbeat Tyrion wondered if he'd drunk some poisoned
wine as well. He slammed his fist down on the table, too angry to speak. It was Mace Tyrell who turned
to Tyrion and asked the question. "Do you have a champion to defend your innocence?"
"He does, my lord." Prince Oberyn of Dome rose to his feet. "The dwarf has quite convinced me."
The uproar was deafening. Tyrion took especial pleasure in the sudden doubt he glimpsed in Cersei's
eyes. It took a hundred gold cloaks pounding the butts of their spears against the floor to quiet the throne
room again. By then Lord Tywin Lannister had recovered himself. "Let the issue be decided on the
morrow," he declared in iron tones. "I wash my hands of it." He gave his dwarf son a cold angry look,
then strode from the hall, out the king's door behind the Iron Throne, his brother Kevan at his side.
Later, back in his tower cell, Tyrion poured himself a cup of wine and sent Podrick Payne off for
cheese, bread, and olives. He doubted whether he could keep down anything heavier just now. Did you
think I would go meekly, Father? he asked the shadow his candles etched upon the wall. I have too
much of you in me for that. He felt strangely at peace, now that he had snatched the power of life and
death from his father's hands and placed it in the hands of the gods. Assuming there are gods, and they
give a mummer's fart. If not, then I'm in Domish hands. No matter what happened, Tyrion had the
satisfaction of knowing that he'd kicked Lord Tywin's plans to splinters. If Prince Oberyn won, it would
further inflame Highgarden against the Domish; Mace Tyrell would see the man who crippled his son
helping the dwarf who almost poisoned his daughter to escape his rightful punishment. And if the


Mountain triumphed, Doran Martell might well demand to know why his brother had been served with
death instead of the justice Tyrion had promised him. Dome might crown Myrcella after all.
It was almost worth dying to know all the trouble he'd made. Will you come to see the end, Shae? Will
you stand there with the rest, watching as Ser llyn lops my ugly head off? Will you miss your giant of
Lannister when he's dead? He drained his wine, flung the cup aside, and sang lustily.
He rode through the streets of the city, down from his hill on high,
O'er the wynds and the steps and the cobbles, he rode to a woman's sigh.
For she was his secret treasure, she was his shame and his bliss.
And a chain and a keep are nothing, compared to a woman's kiss.
Ser Kevan did not visit him that night. He was probably with Lord Tywin, trying to placate the Tyrells. I
have seen the last of that uncle, I fear. He poured another cup of wine. A pity he'd had Symon Silver
Tongue killed before learning all the words of that song. It wasn't a bad song, if truth be told. Especially
compared to the ones that would be written about him henceforth. "For hands of gold are always cold,
but a woman's hands are warm," he sang. Perhaps he should write the other verses himself. If he lived so
long.
That night, surprisingly, Tyrion Larmister slept long and deep. He rose at first light, well rested and with a
hearty appetite, and broke his fast on fried bread, blood sausage, applecakes, and a double helping of
eggs cooked with onions and fiery Dornish peppers. Then he begged leave of his guards to attend his
champion. Ser Addam gave his consent.
Tyrion found Prince Oberyn drinking a cup of red wine as he donned his armor. He was attended by
four of his younger Dornish lordlings. "Good morrow to you, my lord," the prince said. "Will you take a
cup of wine? "
"Should you be drinking before battle?"
"I always drink before battle."
"That could get you killed. Worse, it could get me killed."
Prince Oberyn laughed. "The gods defend the innocent. You are innocent, I trust?"
"Only of killing Joffrey," Tyrion admitted. "I do hope you know what you are about to face. Gregor
Clegane is -
" - large? So I have heard."
"He is almost eight feet tall and must weigh thirty stone, all of it muscle. He fights with a two-handed
greatsword, but needs only one hand to wield it. He has been known to cut men in half with a single
blow. His armor is so heavy that no lesser man could bear the weight, let alone move in it."
Prince Oberyn was unimpressed. "I have killed large men before. The trick is to get them off their feet.
Once they go down, they're dead." The Domishman sounded so blithely confident that Tyrion felt almost


reassured, until he turned and said, "Daemon, my spear!" Ser Daemon tossed it to him, and the Red
Viper snatched it from the air.
"You mean to face the Mountain with a spear?" That made Tyrion uneasy all over again. In battle, ranks
of massed spears made for a formidable front, but single combat against a skilled swordsman was a very
different matter.
"We are fond of spears in Dome. Besides, it is the only way to counter his reach. Have a look, Lord
Imp, but see you do not touch." The spear was turned ash eight feet long, the shaft smooth, thick, and
heavy. The last two feet of that was steel: a slender leaf-shaped spearhead narrowing to a wicked spike.
The edges looked sharp enough to shave with. When Oberyn spun the haft between the palms of his
hand, they glistened black. Oil? Or poison? Tyrion decided that he would sooner not know. "I hope you
are good with that," he said doubtfully.
"You will have no cause for complaint. Though Ser Gregor may. However thick his plate, there will be
gaps at the joints. Inside the elbow and knee, beneath the arms ... I will find a place to tickle him, I
promise you." He set the spear aside. "It is said that a Lannister always pays his debts. Perhaps you will
return to Sunspear with me when the day's bloodletting is done. My brother Doran would be most
pleased to meet the rightful heir to Casterly Rock ... especially if he brought his lovely wife, the Lady of
Winterfell."
Does the snake think I have Sansa squirreled away somewhere, like a nut I'm hoarding for winter? If so,
Tyrion was not about to disabuse him. "A trip to Dome might be very pleasant, now that I reflect on it."
"Plan on a lengthy visit." Prince Oberyn sipped his wine. "You and Doran have many matters of mutual
interest to discuss. Music, trade, history, wine, the dwarf's penny ... the laws of inheritance and
succession. No doubt an uncle's counsel would be of benefit to Queen Myrcella in the trying times
ahead."
If Varys had his little birds listening, Oberyn was giving them a ripe earful. "I believe I will have that cup
of wine," said Tyrion. Queen Myrcella? It would have been more tempting if only he did have Sansa
tucked beneath his cloak. If she declared for Myrcella over Tommen, would the north follow? What the
Red Viper was hinting at was treason. Could Tyrion truly take up arms against Tommen, against his own
father? Cersei would spit blood. It might be worth it for that alone.
"Do you recall the tale I told you of our first meeting, Imp?" Prince
Oberyn asked, as the Bastard of Godsgrace knelt before him to fasten his greaves. "It was not for your
tail alone that my sister and I came to Casterly Rock. We were on a quest of sorts. A quest that took us
to Starfall, the Arbor, Oldtown, the Shield Islands, Crakehall, and finally Casterly Rock ... but our true
destination was marriage. Doran was betrothed to Lady Mellario of Norvos, so he had been left behind
as castellan of Sunspear. My sister and I were yet unpromised.
"Elia found it all exciting. She was of that age, and her delicate health had never permitted her much
travel. I preferred to amuse myself by mocking my sister's suitors. There was Little Lord Lazyeye, Squire
Squishlips, one I named the Whale That Walks, that sort of thing. The only one who was even halfway
presentable was young Baelor Hightower. A pretty lad, and my sister was half in love with him until he
had the misfortune to fart once in our presence. I promptly named him Baelor Breakwind, and after that
Elia couldn't look at him without laughing. I was a monstrous young fellow, someone should have sliced
out my vile tongue."


Yes, Tyrion agreed silently. Baelor Hightower was no longer young, but he remained Lord Leyton's heir;
wealthy, handsome, and a knight of splendid repute. Baelor Brightsmile, they called him now. Had Elia
wed him in place of Rhaegar Targaryen, she might be in Oldtown with her children growing tall around
her. He wondered how many lives had been snuffed out by that fart.
"Lannisport was the end of our voyage," Prince Oberyn went on, as Ser Arron Qorgyle helped him into
a padded leather tunic and began lacing it up the back. "Were you aware that our mothers knew each
other of old? "
"They had been at court together as girls, I seem to recall. Companions to Princess Rhaella?"
"Just so. It was my belief that the mothers had cooked up this plot between them. Squire Squishlips and
his ilk and the various pimply young maidens who'd been paraded before me were the almonds before
the feast, meant only to whet our appetites. The main course was to be served at Casterly Rock."
"Cersei and Jaime."
"Such a clever dwarf. Elia and I were older, to be sure. Your brother and sister could not have been
more than eight or nine. Still, a difference of five or six years is little enough. And there was an empty
cabin on our ship, a very nice cabin, such as might be kept for a person of high birth. As if it were
intended that we take someone back to Sunspear. A young page, perhaps. Or a companion for Elia.
Your lady mother meant to betroth Jaime to my sister, or Cersei to me. Perhaps both."
"Perhaps," said Tyrion, "but my father - "
ruled the Seven Kingdoms, but was ruled at home by his lady wife, or so my mother always said."
Prince Oberyn raised his arms, so Lord Dagos Manwoody and the Bastard of Godsgrace could slip a
chainmail bymie down over his head. "At Oldtown we learned of your mother's death, and the monstrous
child she had borne. We might have turned back there, but my mother chose to sail on. I told you of the
welcome we found at Casterly Rock.
"What I did not tell you was that my mother waited as long as was decent, and then broached your
father about our purpose. Years later, on her deathbed, she told me that Lord Tywin had refused us
brusquely. His daughter was meant for Prince Rhaegar, he informed her. And when she asked for Jaime,
to espouse Elia, he offered her you instead."
"Which offer she took for an outrage."
"It was. Even you can see that, surely?"
"Oh, surely." It all goes back and back, Tyrion thought, to our mothers and fathers and theirs before
them. We are puppets dancing on the strings of those who came before us, and one day our own
children will take up our strings and dance on in our steads. "Well, Prince Rhaegar married Elia of Dome,
not Cersei Lannister of Casterly Rock. So it would seem your mother won that tilt."
"She thought so," Prince Oberyn agreed, "but your father is not a man to forget such slights. He taught
that lesson to Lord and Lady Tarbeck once, and to the Reynes of Castamere. And at King's Landing, he
taught it to my sister. My helm, Dagos." Manwoody handed it to him; a high golden helm with a copper
disk mounted on the brow, the sun of Dome. The visor had been removed, Tyrion saw. "Elia and her
children have waited long for justice." Prince Oberyn pulled on soft red leather gloves, and took up his
spear again. "But this day they shall have it."


The outer ward had been chosen for the combat. Tyrion had to skip and run to keep up with Prince
Oberyn's long strides. The snake is eager, he thought. Let us hope he is venomous as well. The day was
grey and windy. The sun was struggling to break through the clouds, but Tyrion could no more have said
who was going to win that fight than the one on which his life depended.
It looked as though a thousand people had come to see if he would live or die. They lined the castle
wallwalks and elbowed one another on the steps of keeps and towers. They watched from the stable
doors, from windows and bridges, from balconies and roofs. And the yard was packed with them, so
many that the gold cloaks and the knights of the Kingsguard had to shove them back to make enough
room for the fight. Some had dragged out chairs to watch more comfortably, while others perched on
barrels. We should have done this in the Dragonpit, Tyrion thought
sourly. We could have charged a penny a head and paid for Joffrey's wedding and funeral both. Some
of the onlookers even had small children sitting on their shoulders, to get a better view. They shouted and
pointed at the sight of Tyrion.
Cersei seemed half a child herself beside Ser Gregor. In his armor, the Mountain looked bigger than any
man had any right to be. Beneath a long yellow surcoat bearing the three black dogs of Clegane, he wore
heavy plate over chainmail, dull grey steel dinted and scarred in battle. Beneath that would be boiled
leather and a layer of quilting. A flat-topped greathelm was bolted to his gorget, with breaths around the
mouth and nose and a narrow slit for vision. The crest atop it was a stone fist.
If Ser Gregor was suffering from wounds, Tyrion could see no sign of it from across the yard. He looks
as though he was chiseled out of rock, standing there. His greatsword was planted in the ground before
him, six feet of scarred metal. Ser Gregor's huge hands, clad in gauntlets of lobstered steel, clasped the
crosshilt to either side of the grip. Even Prince Oberyn's paramour paled at the sight of him. "You are
going to fight that?" Ellaria Sand said in a hushed voice.
"I am going to kill that," her lover replied carelessly.
Tyrion had his own doubts, now that they stood on the brink. When he looked at Prince Oberyn, he
found himself wishing he had Bronn defending him ... or even better, Jaime. The Red Viper was lightly
armored; greaves, vambraces, gorget, spaulder, steel codpiece. Elsewise Oberyn. was clad in supple
leather and flowing silks. Over his byrnie he wore his scales of gleaming copper, but mail and scale
together would not give him a quarter the protection of Gregor's heavy plate. With its visor removed, the
prince's helm was effectively no better than a halfhelm, lacking even a nasal. His round steel shield was
brightly polished, and showed the sun-and-spear in red gold, yellow gold, white gold, and copper.
Dance around him until he's so tired he can hardly lift his arm, then put him on his back. The Red Viper
seemed to have the same notion as Bronn. But the sellsword had been blunt about the risks of such
tactics. I hope to seven hells that you know what you are doing, snake.
A platform had been erected beside the Tower of the Hand, halfway between the two champions. That
was where Lord Tywin sat with his brother Ser Kevan. King Tommen was not in evidence; for that, at
least, Tyrion was grateful.
Lord Tywin glanced briefly at his dwarf son, then lifted his hand. A dozen trumpeters blew a fanfare to
quiet the crowd. The High Septon shuffled forward in his tall crystal crown, and prayed that the Father
Above would help them in this judgment, and that the Warrior would lend his strength to the arm of the
man whose cause was just. That


would be me, Tyrion almost shouted, but they would only laugh, and he was sick unto death of laughter.
Ser Osmund Kettleblack brought Clegane his shield, a massive thing of heavy oak rimmed in black iron.
As the Mountain slid his left arm through the straps, Tyrion saw that the hounds of Clegane had been
painted over. This morning Ser Gregor bore the seven-pointed star the Andals had brought to Westeros
when they crossed the narrow sea to overwhelm the First Men and their gods. Very pious of you,
Cersei, but I doubt the gods will be impressed.
There were fifty yards between them. Prince Oberyn advanced quickly, Ser Gregor more ominously.
The ground does not shake when he walks, Tyrion told himself. That is only my heart fluttering. When the
two men were ten yards apart, the Red Viper stopped and called out, "Have they told you who I am?"
Ser Gregor grunted through his breaths. "Some dead man." He came on, inexorable.
The Domishman slid sideways. "I am Oberyn Martell, a prince of Dome," he said, as the Mountain
turned to keep him in sight. "Princess Elia was my sister."
"Who?" asked Gregor Clegane.
Oberyn's long spear jabbed, but Ser Gregor took the point on his shield, shoved it aside, and bulled
back at the prince, his great sword flashing. The Domishman spun away untouched. The spear darted
forward. Clegane slashed at it, Martell snapped it back, then thrust again. Metal screamed on metal as
the spearhead slid off the Mountain's chest, slicing through the surcoat and leaving a long bright scratch
on the steel beneath. "Elia Martell, Princess of Dome," the Red Viper hissed. "You raped her. You
murdered her. You killed her children."
Ser Gregor grunted. He made a ponderous charge to hack at the Domishman's head. Prince Oberyn
avoided him easily. "You raped her. You murdered her. You killed her children."
"Did you come to talk or to fight?"
"I came to hear you confess." The Red Viper landed a quick thrust on the Mountain's belly, to no effect.
Gregor cut at him, and missed. The long spear lanced in above his sword. Like a serpent's tongue it
flickered in and out, feinting low and landing high, jabbing at groin, shield, eyes. The Mountain makes for
a big target, at the least, Tyrion thought. Prince Oberyn could scarcely miss, though none of his blows
was penetrating Ser Gregor's heavy plate. The Dornishman kept circling, jabbing, then darting back
again, forcing the bigger man to turn and turn again. Clegane is losing sight of him. The Mountain's helm
had a narrow eyeslit, severely limiting his vision. Oberyn was making good use of that, and the length of
his spear, and his quickness.
It went on that way for what seemed a long time. Back and forth they moved across the yard, and round
and round in spirals, Ser Gregor slashing at the air while Oberyn's spear struck at arm, and leg, twice at
his temple. Gregor's big wooden shield took its share of hits as well, until a dog's head peeped out from
under the star, and elsewhere the raw oak showed through. Clegane would grunt from time to time, and
once Tyrion heard him mutter a curse, but otherwise he fought in a sullen silence.
Not Oberyn Martell. "You raped her," he called, feinting. "You murdered her," he said, dodging a
looping cut from Gregor's greatsword. "You killed her children," he shouted, slamming the spearpoint into
the giant's throat, only to have it glance off the thick steel gorget with a screech.


"Oberyn is toying with him," said Ellaria Sand.
That is fool's play, thought Tyrion. "The Mountain is too bloody big to be any man's toy."
All around the yard, the throng of spectators was creeping in toward the two combatants, edging
forward inch by inch to get a better view. The Kingsguard tried to keep them back, shoving at the
gawkers forcefully with their big white shields, but there were hundreds of gawkers and only six of the
men in white armor.
"You raped her." Prince Oberyn parried a savage cut with his spearhead. "You murdered her." He sent
the spearpoint at Clegane's eyes, so fast the huge man flinched back. "You killed her children." The spear
flickered sideways and down, scraping against the Mountain's breastplate. "You raped her. You
murdered her. You killed her children." The spear was two feet longer than Ser Gregor's sword, more
than enough to keep him at an awkward distance. He hacked at the shaft whenever Oberyn lunged at
him, trying to lop off the spearhead, but he might as well have been trying to hack the wings off a fly.
"You raped her. You murdered her. You killed her children." Gregor tried to bull rush, but Oberyn
skipped aside and circled round his back. "You raped her. You murdered her. You killed her children."
"Be quiet." Ser Gregor seemed to be moving a little slower, and his greatsword no longer rose quite so
high as it had when the contest began. "Shut your bloody mouth."
"You raped her," the prince said, moving to the right.
"Enough!" Ser Gregor took two long strides and brought his sword down at Oberyn's head, but the
Domishman backstepped once more. "You murdered her," he said.
"SHUT UP" Gregor charged headlong, right at the point of the spear, which slammed into his right
breast then slid aside with a hideous steel shriek. Suddenly the Mountain was close enough to strike, his
huge sword flashing in a steel blur. The crowd was screaming as well. Oberyn slipped the first blow and
let go of the spear, useless now that Ser Gregor was
inside it. The second cut the Domishman caught on his shield. Metal met metal with an ear-splitting
clan& sending the Red Viper reeling. Ser Gregor followed, bellowing. He doesn't use words, he just
roars like an animal, Tyrion thought. Oberyn's retreat became a headlong backward flight mere inches
ahead of the greatsword as it slashed at his chest, his arms, his head.
The stable was behind him. Spectators screamed and shoved at each other to get out of the way. One
stumbled into Oberyn's back. Ser Gregor hacked down with all his savage strength. The Red Viper
threw himself sideways, rolling. The luckless stableboy behind him was not so quick. As his arm rose to
protect his face, Gregor's sword took it off between elbow and shoulder. "Shut UP!" the Mountain
howled at the stableboy's scream, and this time he swung the blade sideways, sending the top half of the
lad's head across the yard in a spray of blood and brains. Hundreds of spectators suddenly seemed to
lose all interest in the guilt or innocence of Tyrion Lannister, judging by the way they pushed and shoved
at each other to escape the yard.
But the Red Viper of Dome was back on his feet, his long spear in hand. "Elia," he called at Ser Gregor.
"You raped her. You murdered her. You killed her children. Now say her name."
The Mountain whirled. Helm, shield, sword, surcoat; he was spattered with gore from head to heels.
"You talk too much," he grumbled. "You make my head hurt."


"I will hear you say it. She was Elia of Dome."
The Mountain snorted contemptuously, and came on ... and in that moment, the sun broke through the
low clouds that had hidden the sky since dawn.
The sun of Dorne, Tyrion told himself, but it was Gregor Clegane who moved first to put the sun at his
back. This is a dim and brutal man, but he has a warrior's instincts.
The Red Viper crouched, squinting, and sent his spear darting forward again. Ser Gregor hacked at it,
but the thrust had only been a feint. Off balance, he stumbled forward a step.
Prince Oberyn tilted his dinted metal shield. A shaft of sunlight blazed blindingly off polished gold and
copper, into the narrow slit of his foe's helm. Clegane lifted his own shield against the glare. Prince
Oberyn's spear flashed like lightning and found the gap in the heavy plate, the joint under the arm. The
point punched through mail and boiled leather. Gregor gave a choked grunt as the Domishman twisted his
spear and yanked it free. "Elia. Say it! Elia. of Dome!" He was circlin& spear poised for another thrust.
"Say it!"
Tyrion had his own prayer. Fall down and die, was how it went. Damn you, fall down and die! The
blood trickling from the Mountain's armpit
was his own now, and he must be bleeding even more heavily inside the breastplate. When he tried to
take a step, one knee buckled. Tyrion thought he was going down.
Prince Oberyn had circled behind him. "ELIA OF DORNE!" he shouted. Ser Gregor started to turn, but
too slow and too late. The spearhead went through the back of the knee this time, through the layers of
chain and leather between the plates on thigh and calf. The Mountain reeled, swayed, then collapsed face
first on the ground. His huge sword went flying from his hand. Slowly, ponderously, he rolled onto his
back.
The Dornishman flung away his ruined shield, grasped the spear in both hands, and sauntered away.
Behind him the Mountain let out a groan, and pushed himself onto an elbow. Oberyn whirled cat-quick,
and ran at his fallen foe. "EEEEELLLLLLIIIIIAAAAA!" he screamed, as he drove the spear down with
the whole weight of his body behind it. The crack of the ashwood shaft snapping was almost as sweet a
sound as Cersei's wail of fury, and for an instant Prince Oberyn had wings. The snake has vaulted over
the Mountain. Four feet of broken spear jutted from Clegane's belly as Prince Oberyn rolled, rose, and
dusted himself off. He tossed aside the splintered spear and claimed his foe's greatsword. "If you die
before you say her name, ser, I will hunt you through all seven hells," he promised.
Ser Gregor tried to rise, The broken spear had gone through him, and was pinning him to the ground. He
wrapped both hands about the shaft, grunting, but could not pull it out. Beneath him was a spreading pool
of red. "I am feeling more innocent by the instant," Tyrion told Ellaria Sand beside him.
Prince Oberyn moved closer. "Say the name!" He put a foot on the Mountain's chest and raised the
greatsword with both hands. Whether he intended to hack off Gregor's head or shove the point through
his eyeslit was something Tyrion would never know.
Clegane's hand shot up and grabbed the Dornishman behind the knee. The Red Viper brought down the
greatsword in a wild slash, but he was off-balance, and the edge did no more than put another dent in the
Mountain's vambrace. Then the sword was forgotten as Gregor's hand tightened and twisted, yanking the
Dornishman down on top of him. They wrestled in the dust and blood, the broken spear wobbling back


and forth. Tyrion saw with horror that the Mountain had wrapped one huge arm around the prince,
drawing him tight against his chest, like a lover.
"Elia of Dorne," they all heard Ser Gregor say, when they were close enough to kiss. His deep voice
boomed within the helm. "I killed her screaming whelp." He thrust his free hand into Oberyn's
unprotected face, pushing steel fingers into his eyes. "Then I raped her." Clegane
slammed his fist into the Dornishman's mouth, making splinters of his teeth. "Then I smashed her fucking
head in. Like this." As he drew back his huge fist, the blood on his gauntlet seemed to smoke in the cold
dawn air. There was a sickening crunch. Ellaria Sand wailed in terror, and Tyrion's breakfast came
boiling back up. He found himself on his knees retching bacon and sausage and applecakes, and that
double helping of fried eggs cooked up with onions and fiery Dornish peppers.
He never heard his father speak the words that condemned him. Perhaps no words were necessary. I
put my life in the Red Viper's hands, and he dropped it. When he remembered, too late, that snakes had
no hands, Tyrion began to laugh hysterically.
He was halfway down the serpentine steps before he realized that the gold cloaks were not taking him
back to his tower room. "I've been consigned to the black cells," he said. They did not bother to answer.
Why waste your breath on the dead?
Chapter 71
DAENERYS
Dany broke her fast under the persimmon tree that grew in the terrace garden, watching her dragons
chase each other about the apex of the Great Pyramid where the huge bronze harpy once stood.
Meereen had a score of lesser pyramids, but none stood even half as tall. From here she could see the
whole city: the narrow twisty alleys and wide brick streets, the temples and granaries, hovels and palaces,
brothels and baths, gardens and fountains, the great red circles of the fighting pits. And beyond the walls
was the pewter sea, the winding Skahazadhan, the dry brown hills, burnt orchards, and blackened fields.
Up here in her garden Dany sometimes felt like a god, living atop the highest mountain in the world.
Do all gods feel so lonely? Some must, surely. Missandei had told her of the Lord of Harmony,
worshiped by the Peaceful People of Naath; he was the only true god, her little scribe said, the god who
always was and always would be, who made the moon and stars and earth, and all the creatures that
dwelt upon them. Poor Lord of Harmony. Dany pitied him. it must be terrible to be alone for all time,
attended by hordes of butterfly women you could make or unmake at a word. Westeros had seven gods
at least, though Viserys had told her that some septons, said the seven were only aspects of a single god,
seven facets of a single crystal. That was just confusing. The red priests believed in two gods, she had
heard, but two who were eternally at war. Dany liked that even less. She would not want to be eternally
at war.
Missandei served her duck eggs and dog sausage, and half a cup of sweetened wine mixed with the
juice of a lime. The honey drew flies,
but a scented candle drove them off. The flies were not so troublesome up here as they were in the rest


of her city, she had found, something else she liked about the pyramid. "I must remember to do
something about the flies," Dany said. "Are there many flies on Naath, Missandei?"
"On Naath there are butterflies," the scribe responded in the Common Tongue. "More wine?"
"No. I must hold court soon." Dany had grown very fond of Missandei. The little scribe with the big
golden eyes was wise beyond her years. She is brave as well. She had to be, to survive the life she's
lived. One day she hoped to see this fabled isle of Naath. Missandei said the Peaceful People made
music instead of war. They did not kill, not even animals; they ate only fruit and never flesh. The butterfly
spirits sacred to their Lord of Harmony protected their isle against those who would do them harm.
Many conquerors had sailed on Naath to blood their swords, only to sicken and die. The butterflies do
not help them when the slave ships come raiding, though. "I am going to take you home one day,
Missandei," Dany promised. ff I had made the same promise to Jorah, would he still have sold me? "I
swear it."
"This one is content to stay with you, Your Grace. Naath will be there, always. You are good to this - to
me."
"And you to me." Dany took the girl by the hand. "Come help me dress."
Jhiqui helped Missandei bathe her while Irri was laying out her clothes. Today she wore a robe of purple
samite and a silver sash, and on her head the three-headed dragon crown the Tourmaline Brotherhood
had given her in Qarth. Her slippers were silver as well, with heels so high that she was always half afraid
she was about to topple over. When she was dressed, Missandei brought her a polished silver glass so
she could see how she looked. Dany stared at herself in silence. Is this the face of a conqueror? So far as
she could tell, she still looked like a little girl.
No one was calling her Daenerys the Conqueror yet, but perhaps they would. Aegon the Conqueror
had won Westeros with three dragons, but she had taken Meereen with sewer rats and a wooden cock,
in less than a day. Poor Groleo. He still grieved for his ship, she knew. If a war galley could ram another
ship, why not a gate? That had been her thought when she commanded the captains to drive their ships
ashore. Their masts had become her battering rams, and swarms of freedmen had torn their hulls apart to
build mantlets, turtles, catapults, and ladders. The sellwords had given each ram a bawdy name, and it
had been the mainmast of Meraxes - formerly Joso's Prank that had broken the eastern gate. Joso's
Cock, they called it. The fighting had raged bitter and bloody for most of a day and well into the night
before the wood began to splinter and Meraxes' iron figurehead, a laughing jester's face, came crashing
through.
Dany had wanted to lead the attack herself, but to a man her captains said that would be madness, and
her captains never agreed on anything. Instead she remained in the rear, sitting atop her silver in a long
shirt of mail. She heard the city fall from half a league away, though, when the defenders' shouts of
defiance changed to cries of fear. Her dragons had roared as one in that moment, filling the night with
flame. The slaves are rising, she knew at once. My sewer rats have gnawed off their chains.
When the last resistance had been crushed by the Unsullied and the sack had run its course, Dany
entered her city. The dead were heaped so high before the broken gate that it took her freedmen near an
hour to make a path for her silver. Joso's Cock and the great wooden turtle that had protected it,
covered with horsehides, lay abandoned within. She rode past burned buildings and broken windows,
through brick streets where the gutters were choked with the stiff and swollen dead. Cheering slaves
lifted bloodstained hands to her as she went by, and called her "Mother."


In the plaza before the Great Pyramid, the Meereenese huddled forlorn. The Great Masters had looked
anything but great in the morning light. Stripped of their jewels and their fringed tokars, they were
contemptible; a herd of old men with shriveled balls and spotted skin and young men with ridiculous hair.
Their women were either soft and fleshy or as dry as old sticks, their face paint streaked by tears. "I want
your leaders," Dany told them. "Give them up, and the rest of you shall be spared."
"How many?" one old woman had asked, sobbing. "How many must you have to spare us?"
"One hundred and sixty-three," she answered.
She had them nailed to wooden posts around the plaza, each man pointing at the next. The anger was
fierce and hot inside her when she gave the command; it made her feel like an avenging dragon. But later,
when she passed the men dying on the posts, when she heard their moans and smelled their bowels and
blood ...
Dany put the glass aside, frowning. It was just. It was. I did it for the children.
Her audience chamber was on the level below, an echoing highceilinged room with walls of purple
marble. It was a chilly place for all its grandeur. There had been a throne there, a fantastic thing of carved
and gilded wood in the shape of a savage harpy. She had taken one long look and commanded it be
broken up for firewood. "I will not sit in the harpy's lap," she told them. Instead she sat upon a simple
ebony bench. it served, though she had heard the Meereenese muttering that it did not befit a queen.
Her bloodriders were waiting for her. Silver bells tinkled in their oiled braids, and they wore the gold and
jewels of dead men. Meereen had been
rich beyond imagining. Even her sellswords seemed sated, at least for now. Across the room, Grey
Worm wore the plain uniform of the Unsullied, his spiked bronze cap beneath one arm. These at least she
could rely on, or so she hoped ... and Brown Ben Plumm as well, solid Ben with his grey-white hair and
weathered face, so beloved of her dragons. And Daario beside him, glittering in gold. Daario and Ben
Plumm, Grey Worm, Irri, Jhiqui, Missandei ... as she looked at them Dany found herself wondering
which of them would betray her next.
The dragon has three heads. There are two men in the world who I can trust, if I can flnd them. I will not
be alone then. We will be three against the world, like Aegon and his sisters.
"Was the night as quiet as it seemed?" Dany asked.
"It seems it was, Your Grace," said Brown Ben Plumm.
She was pleased. Meereen had been sacked savagely, as new-fallen cities always were, but Dany was
determined that should end now that the city was hers. She had decreed that murderers were to be
hanged, that looters were to lose a hand, and rapists their manhood. Eight killers swung from the walls,
and the Unsullied had filled a bushel basket with bloody hands and soft red worms, but Meereen was
calm again. But for how long?
A fly buzzed her head. Dany waved it off, irritated, but it returned almost at once. "There are too many
flies in this city."
Ben Plumm gave a bark of laughter. "There were flies in my ale this morning. I swallowed one of them."


"Flies are the dead man's revenge." Daario smiled, and stroked the center prong of his beard. "Corpses
breed maggots, and maggots breed flies."
"We will rid ourselves of the corpses, then. Starting with those in the plaza below. Grey Worm, will you
see to it?"
"The queen commands, these ones obey."
"Best bring sacks as well as shovels, Worm," Brown Ben counseled. "Well past ripe, those ones. Falling
off those poles in bits and pieces, and crawling with . . . "
"He knows. So do L" Dany remembered the horror she had felt when she had seen the Plaza of
Punishment in Astapor. I made a horror just as great, but surely they deserved it. Harsh justice is still
justice.
"Your Grace," said Missandei, "Ghiscari inter their honored dead in crypts below their manses. if you
would boil the bones clean and return them to their kin, it would be a kindness."
The widows will curse me all the same. "Let it be done." Dany beckoned to Daario. "How many seek
audience this morning?"
"Two have presented themselves to bask in your radiance."
Daario had plundered himself a whole new wardrobe in Meereen, and
to match it he had redyed his trident beard and curly hair a deep rich purple. It made his eyes look
almost purple too, as if he were some lost Valyrian. "They arrived in the night on the Indigo Star, a
trading galley out of Qarth."
A slaver, you mean. Dany frowned. "Who are they?"
"The Star's master and one who claims to speak for Astapor."
"I will see the envoy first."
He proved to be a pale ferret-faced man with ropes of pearls and spun gold hanging heavy about his
neck. "Your Worship!" he cried. "My name is Ghael. I bring greetings to the Mother of Dragons from
King Cleon of Astapor, Cleon the Great."
Dany stiffened. "I left a council to rule Astapor. A healer, a scholar, and a priest."
"Your Worship, those sly rogues betrayed your trust. It was revealed that they were scheming to restore
the Good Masters to power and the people to chains. Great Cleon exposed their plots and hacked their
heads off with a cleaver, and the grateful folk of Astapor have crowned him for his valor."
"Noble Ghael," said Missandei, in the dialect of Astapor, "is this the same Cleon once owned by
Grazdan mo Ullhor?"
Her voice was guileless, yet the question plainly made the envoy anxious. "The same," he admitted. "A
great man."


Missandei leaned close to Dany. "He was a butcher in Grazdan's kitchen," the girl whispered in her ear.
"It was said he could slaughter a pig faster than any man in Astapor."
I have given Astapor a butcher king. Dany felt ill, but she knew she must not let the envoy see it. "I will
pray that King Cleon rules well and wisely. What would he have of me?"
Ghael rubbed his mouth. "Perhaps we should speak more privily, Your Grace?"
"I have no secrets from my captains and commanders."
"As you wish. Great Cleon bids me declare his devotion to the Mother of Dragons. Your enemies are
his enemies, he says, and chief among them are the Wise Masters of Yunkai. He proposes a pact
between Astapor and Meereen, against the Yunkai'i."
"I swore no harm would come to Yunkai if they released their slaves," said Dany.
"These Yunkish dogs cannot be trusted, Your Worship. Even now they plot against you. New levies
have been raised and can be seen drilling outside the city walls, warships are being built, envoys have
been sent to New Ghis and Volantis in the west, to make alliances and hire sellswords. They have even
dispatched riders to Vaes Dothrak to bring a khalasar down upon you. Great Cleon bid me tell you not
to be afraid.
Astapor remembers. Astapor will not forsake you. To prove his faith, Great Cleon offers to seal your
alliance with a marriage."
"A marriage? To me?"
Ghael smiled. His teeth were brown and rotten. "Great Cleon will give you many strong sons."
Dany found herself bereft of words, but little Missandei came to her rescue. "Did his first wife give him
sons?"
The envoy looked at her unhappily. "Great Cleon has three daughters by his first wife. Two of his newer
wives are with child. But he means to put all of them aside if the Mother of Dragons will consent to wed
him."
"How noble of him," said Dany. "I will consider all you've said, my lord." She gave orders that Ghael be
given chambers for the night, somewhere lower in the pyramid.
All my victories turn to dross in my hands, she thought. Whatever I do, all I make is death and horror.
When word of what had befallen Astapor reached the streets, as it surely would, tens of thousands of
newly freed Meereenese slaves would doubtless decide to follow her when she went west, for fear of
what awaited them if they stayed ... yetit might well be that worse would await them on the march. Even
if she emptied every granary in the city and left Meereen to starve, how could she feed so many? The
way before her was fraught with hardship, bloodshed, and danger. Ser Jorah had warned her of that.
He'd warned her of so many things ... he'd ... No, I will not think of forah Mormont. Let him keep a little
longer. "I shall see this trader captain," she announced. Perhaps he would have some better tidings.
That proved to be a forlorn hope. The master of the Indigo Star was Qartheen, so he wept copiously
when asked about Astapor. "The city bleeds. Dead men rot unburied in the streets, each pyramid is an
armed camp, and the markets have neither food nor slaves for sale. And the poor children! King


Cleaver's thugs have seized every highborn boy in Astapor to make new Unsullied for the trade, though it
will be years before they are trained."
The thing that surprised Dany most was how unsurprised she was. She found herself remembering
Eroeh, the Lhazarene girl she had once tried to protect, and what had happened to her. It will be the
same in Meereen once I march, she thought. The slaves from the fighting pits, bred and trained to
slaughter, were already proving themselves unruly and quarrelsome. They seemed to think they owned
the city now, and every man and woman in it. Two of them had been among the eight she'd hanged.
There is no more I can do, she told herself. "What do you want of me, Captain?"
"Slaves," he said. "My holds are full to bursting with ivory, ambergris,
zorse hides, and other fine goods. I would trade them here for slaves, to sell in Lys and Volantis.-
"We have no slaves for sale," said Dany.
"My queen?" Daario stepped forward. "The riverside is full of Meereenese, begging leave to be allowed
to sell themselves to this Qartheen. They are thicker than the flies."
Dany was shocked. "They want to be slaves?"
"The ones who come are well spoken and gently born, sweet queen. Such slaves are prized. In the Free
Cities they will be tutors, scribes, bed slaves, even healers and priests. They will sleep in soft beds, eat
rich foods, and dwell in manses. Here they have lost all, and live in fear and squalor."
"I see." Perhaps it was not so shocking, if these tales of Astapor were true. Dany thought a moment.
"Any man who wishes to sell himself into slavery may do so. Or woman." She raised a hand. "But they
may not sell their children, nor a man his wife."
"In Astapor the city took a tenth part of the price, each time a slave changed hands," Missandei told her.
"We'll do the same," Dany decided. Wars were won with gold as much as swords. "A tenth part. In gold
or silver coin, or ivory. Meereen has no need of saffron, cloves, or zorse hides."
"It shall be done as you command, glorious queen," said Daario. "My Stormcrows will collect your
tenth."
if the Stormcrows saw to the collections at least half the gold would somehow go astray, Dany knew.
But the Second Sons were just as bad, and the Unsullied were as unlettered as they were incorruptible.
"Records must be kept," she said. "Seek among the freedmen for men who can read, write, and do
sums."
His business done, the captain of the Indigo Star bowed and took his leave. Dany shifted uncomfortably
on the ebony bench. She dreaded what must come next, yet she knew she had put it off too long already.
Yunkai and Astapor, threats of war, marriage proposals, the march west looming over all ... I need my
knights. I need their swords, and I need their counsel. Yet the thought of seeing Jorah Mormont again
made her feel as if she'd swallowed a spoonful of flies; angry, agitated, sick. She could almost feel them
buzzing round her belly. I am the blood of the dragon. I must be strong. I must have flre in my eyes when
I face them, not tears. "Tell Belwas to bring my knights," Dany commanded, before she could change her
mind. "My good knights."


Strong Belwas was puffing from the climb when he marched them through the doors, one meaty hand
wrapped tight around each man's arm. Ser Barristan walked with his head held high, but Ser Jorah stared
at the marble floor as he approached. The one is proud, the other guilty.
The old man had shaved off his white beard. He looked ten years younger without it. But her balding
bear looked older than he had. They halted before the bench. Strong Belwas stepped back and stood
with his arms crossed across his scarred chest. Ser Jorah cleared his throat. "Khaleesi.. ."
She had missed his voice so much, but she had to be stem. "Be quiet. I will tell you when to speak." She
stood. "When I sent you down into the sewers, part of me hoped I'd seen the last of you. It seemed a
fitting end for liars, to drown in slavers' filth. I thought the gods would deal with you, but instead you
returned to me. My gallant knights of Westeros, an informer and a tumcloak. My brother would have
hanged you both." Viserys, would have, anyway. She did not know what Rhaegar would have done. "I
will admit you helped win me this city..."
Ser Jorah's mouth tightened. "We won you this city. We sewer rats."
"Be quiet," she said again.. . though there was truth to what he said. While joso's Cock and the other
rams were battering the city gates and her archers were firing flights of flaming arrows over the walls,
Dany had sent two hundred men along the river under cover of darkness to fire the hulks in the harbor.
But that was only to hide their true purpose. As the flaming ships drew the eyes of the defenders on the
walls, a few half-mad swimmers found the sewer mouths and pried loose a rusted iron grating. Ser Jorah,
Ser Barristan, Strong Belwas, and twenty brave fools slipped beneath the brown water and up the brick
tunnel, a mixed force of sellswords, Unsullied, and freedmen. Dany had told them to choose only men
who had no families ... and preferably no sense of smell.
They had been lucky as well as brave. It had been a moon's turn since the last good rain, and the sewers
were only thigh-high. The oilcloth they'd wrapped around their torches kept them dry, so they had light.
A few of the freedmen were frightened of the huge rats until Strong Belwas caught one and bit it in two.
One man was killed by a great pale lizard that reared up out of the dark water to drag him off by the leg,
but when next ripples were spied Ser Jorah butchered the beast with his blade. They took some wrong
turnings, but once they found the surface Strong Belwas led them to the nearest fighting pit, where they
surprised a few guards and struck the chains off the slaves. Within an hour, half the fighting slaves in
Meereen had risen.
"You helped win this city," she repeated stubbornly. "And you have served me well in the past. Ser
Barristan saved me from the Titan's Bastard, and from the Sorrowful Man in Qarth. Ser Jorah saved me
from the poisoner in Vaes Dothrak, and again from Drogo's bloodriders after my sun-and-stars had
died." So many people wanted her dead, sometimes she lost count. "And yet you lied, deceived me,
betrayed me." She turned to Ser Barristan. "You protected my father for many years, fought beside
my brother on the Trident, but you abandoned Viserys in his exile and bent your knee to the Usurper
instead. Why? And tell it true."
"Some truths are hard to hear. Robert was a ... a good knight ... chivalrous, brave ... he spared my life,
and the lives of many others ... Prince Viserys was only a boy, it would have been years before he was fit
to rule, and ... forgive me, my queen, but you asked for truth. . . even as a child, your brother Viserys oft
seemed to be his father's son, in ways that Rhaegar never did."
"His father's son?" Dany frowned. "What does that mean?"


The old knight did not blink. "Your father is called 'the Mad King' in Westeros. Has no one ever told
you?"
"Viserys did." The Mad King. "The Usurper called him that, the Usurper and his dogs." The Mad King.
"It was a lie."
"Why ask for truth," Ser Barristan said softly, "if you close your ears to it?" He hesitated, then continued.
"I told you before that I used a false name so the Lannisters would not know that Id joined you. That was
less than half of it, Your Grace. The truth is, I wanted to watch you for a time before pledging you my
sword. To make certain that you were not..."
". . . my father's daughter?" If she was not her father's daughter, who was she?
". . . mad," he finished. "But I see no taint in you."
"Taint?" Dany bristled.
"I am no maester to quote history at you, Your Grace. Swords have been my life, not books. But every
child knows that the Targaryens have always danced too close to madness. Your father was not the first.
King Jaehaerys once told me that madness and greatness are two sides of the same coin. Every time a
new Targaryen is born, he said, the gods toss the coin in the air and the world holds its breath to see how
it will land."
Jaehaerys. This old man knew my grandfather. The thought gave her pause. Most of what she knew of
Westeros had come from her brother, and the rest from Ser Jorah. Ser Barristan would have forgotten
more than the two of them had ever known. This man can tell me what I came from. "So I am a coin in
the hands of some god, is that what you are saying, ser?"
"No," Ser Barristan replied. "You are the trueborn heir of Westeros. To the end of my days I shall
remain your faithful knight, should you find me worthy to bear a sword again. If not, I am content to serve
Strong Belwas as his squire."
"What if I decide you're only worthy to be my fool?" Dany asked scornfully. "Or perhaps my cook?"
"I would be honored, Your Grace," Selmy said with quiet dignity. "I
can bake apples and boil beef as well as any man, and I've roasted many a duck over a campfire. I hope
you like them greasy, with charred skin and bloody bones."
That made her smile. "I'd have to be mad to eat such fare. Ben Plumm, come give Ser Barristan your
longsword."
But Whitebeard would not take it. "I flung my sword at Joffrey's feet and have not touched one since.
Only from the hand of my queen will I accept a sword again."
"As you wish." Dany took the sword from Brown Ben and offered it hilt first. The old man took it
reverently. "Now kneel," she told him, /land swear it to my service."
He went to one knee and lay the blade before her as he said the words. Dany scarcely heard them. He
was the easy one, she thought. The other will be harder. When Ser Barristan was done, she turned to
Jorah Mormont. "And now you, ser. Tell me true."


The big man's neck was red; whether from anger or shame she did not know. "I have tried to tell you
true, half a hundred times. I told you Arstan was more than he seemed. I warned you that Xaro and Pyat
Pree were not to be trusted. I warned you - "
"You warned me against everyone except yourself." His insolence angered her. He should be humbler.
He should beg for my forgiveness. "Trust no one but Jorah Mormont, you said ... and all the time you
were the Spider's creature!"
"I am no man's creature. I took the eunuch's gold, yes. I learned some ciphers and wrote some letters,
but that was all - "
"All? You spied on me and sold me to my enemies!"
"For a time." He said it grudgingly. "I stopped."
"When? When did you stop?"
"I made one report from Qarth, but -
"From Qarth?" Dany had been hoping it had ended much earlier. "What did you write from Qarth? That
you were my man now, that you wanted no more of their schemes?" Ser Jorah could not meet her eyes.
"When Khal Drogo died, you asked me to go with you to Yi Ti and the jade Sea. Was that your wish or
Robert's?"
"That was to protect you," he insisted. "To keep you away from them. I knew what snakes they were . .
. "
"Snakes? And what are you, ser?" Something unspeakable occurred to her. "You told them I was
carrying Drogo's child..."
"Khaleesi..."
"Do not think to deny it, ser," Ser Barristan said sharply. "I was there when the eunuch told the council,
and Robert decreed that Her Grace and her child must die. You were the source, ser. There was even
talk that you might do the deed, for a pardon."
"A lie." Ser Jorah's face darkened. "I would never ... Daenerys, it was me who stopped you from
drinking the wine."
"Yes. And how was it you knew the wine was poisoned?"
"I ... I but suspected ... the caravan brought a letter from Varys, he warned me there would be attempts.
He wanted you watched, yes, but not harmed." He went to his knees. "If I had not told them someone
else would have. You know that."
"I know you betrayed me." She touched her belly, where her son Rhaego had perished. "I know a
poisoner tried to kill my son, because of you. That's what I know"
"No ... no." He shook his head. "I never meant ... forgive me. You have to forgive me."


"Have to?" It was too late. He should have begun by begging forgiveness. She could not pardon him as
she'd intended. She had dragged the wineseller behind her horse until there was nothing left of him. Didn't
the man who brought him deserve the same? This is Jorah, my fierce bear, the right arm that never failed
me. I would be dead without him, but . . . "I can't forgive you," she said. "I can't."
"You forgave the old man..."
"He lied to me about his name. You sold my secrets to the men who killed my father and stole my
brother's throne."
"I protected you. I fought for you. Killed for you."
Kissed me, she thought, betrayed me.
"I went down into the sewers like a rat. For you."
It might have been kinder if you'd died there. Dany said nothing. There was nothing to say.
"Daenerys," he said, "I have loved you."
And there it was. Three treasons will you know Once for blood and once for gold and once for love.
"The gods do nothing without a purpose, they say. You did not die in battle, so it must be they still have
some use for you. But I don't. I will not have you near me. You are banished, ser. Go back to your
masters in King's Landing and collect your pardon, if you can. Or to Astapor. No doubt the butcher king
needs knights."
"No." He reached for her. "Daenerys, please, hear me..."
She slapped his hand away. "Do not ever presume to touch me again, or to speak my name. You have
until dawn to collect your things and leave this city. If you're found in Meereen past break of day, I will
have Strong Belwas twist your head off. I will. Believe that." She turned her back on him, her skirts
swirling. I cannot bear to see his face. "Remove this liar from my sight, " she commanded. I must not
weep. I must not. If I weep I will forgive him. Strong Belwas seized Ser Jorah by the arm and dragged
him out. When Dany glanced back, the knight was walking as if drunk, stumbling and slow. She looked
away until she heard the doors open and
close. Then she sank back onto the ebony bench. He's gone, then. Myfather and my mother, my
brothers, Ser Willem Darry, Drogo who was my sunand-stars, his son who died inside me, and now Ser
forah ...
"The queen has a good heart," Daario purred through his deep purple whiskers, "but that one is more
dangerous than all the Oznaks and Meros rolled up in one." His strong hands caressed the hilts of his
matched blades, those wanton golden women. "You need not even say the word, my radiance. Only give
the tiniest nod, and your Daario shall fetch you back his ugly head."
"Leave him be. The scales are balanced now. Let him go home." Dany pictured Jorah moving amongst
old gnarled oaks and tall pines, past flowering thornbushes, grey stones bearded with moss, and little
creeks running icy down steep hillsides. She saw him entering a hall built of huge logs, where dogs slept
by the hearth and the smell of meat and mead hung thick in the smoky air. "We are done for now," she
told her captains.


it was all she could do not to run back up the wide marble stairs. Irri helped her slip from her court
clothes and into more comfortable garb; baggy woolen breeches, a loose felted tunic, a painted Dothraki
vest. "You are trembling, Khaleesi," the girl said as she knelt to lace up Dany's sandals.
"I'm cold," Dany lied. "Bring me the book I was reading last night." She wanted to lose herself in the
words, in other times and other places. The fat leather-bound volume was full of songs and stories from
the Seven Kingdoms. Children's stories, if truth be told; too simple and fanciful to be true history. All the
heroes were tall and handsome, and you could tell the traitors by their shifty eyes. Yet she loved them all
the same. Last night she had been reading of the three princesses in the red tower, locked away by the
king for the crime of being beautiful.
When her handmaid brought the book, Dany had no trouble finding the page where she had left off, but
it was no good. She found herself reading the same passage half a dozen times. Ser forah gave me this
book as a bride's gift, the day I wed Khal Drogo. But Daario is right, I shouldn't have banished him. I
should have kept him, or I should have killed him. She played at being a queen, yet sometimes she still
felt like a scared little girl. Viserys always said what a dolt I was. Was he truly mad? She closed the
book. She could still recall Ser Jorah, if she wished. Or send Daario to kill him.
Dany fled from the choice, out onto the terrace. She found Rhaegal asleep beside the pool, a green and
bronze coil basking in the sun. Drogon was perched up atop the pyramid, in the place where the huge
bronze harpy had stood before she had commanded it to be pulled down. He spread his wings and
roared when he spied her. There was no sign of Viserion, but when she went to the parapet and scanned
the horizon she
saw pale wings in the far distance, sweeping above the river. He is hunting. They grow bolder every day.
Yet it still made her anxious when they flew too far away. One day one of them may not return, she
thought.
"Your Grace?"
She turned to find Ser Barristan behind her. "What more would you have of me, ser? I spared you, I
took you into my service, now give me some peace."
"Forgive me, Your Grace. It was only . . . now that you know who I am..." The old man hesitated. "A
knight of the Kingsguard is in the king's presence day and night. For that reason, our vows require us to
protect his secrets as we would his life. But your father's secrets by rights belong to you now, along with
his throne, and ... I thought perhaps you might have questions for me."
Questions? She had a hundred questions, a thousand, ten thousand. Why couldn't she think of one?
"Was my father truly mad?" she blurted out. Why do I ask that? "Viserys said this talk of madness was a
ploy of the Usurper's..."
"Viserys was a child, and the queen sheltered him as much as she could. Your father always had a little
madness in him, I now believe. Yet he was charming and generous as well, so his lapses were forgiven.
His reign began with such promise ... but as the years passed, the lapses grew more frequent, until. .."
Dany stopped him. "Do I want to hear this now?"
Ser Barristan considered a moment. "Perhaps not. Not now."
"Not now," she agreed. "One day. One day you must tell me all. The good and the bad. There is some


good to be said of my father, surely?"
"There is, Your Grace. Of him, and those who came before him. Your grandfather Jaehaerys and his
brother, their father Aegon, your mother ... and Rhaegar. Him most of all."
"I wish I could have known him." Her voice was wistful.
"I wish he could have known you," the old knight said. "When you are ready, I will tell you all."
Dany kissed him on the cheek and sent him on his way.
That night her handmaids brought her lamb, with a salad of raisins and carrots soaked in wine, and a hot
flaky bread dripping with honey. She could eat none of it. Did Rhaegar ever grow so weary? she
wondered. Did Aegon, after his conquest?
Later, when the time came for sleep, Dany took Irri into bed with her, for the first time since the ship.
But even as she shuddered in release and wound her fingers through her handmaid's thick black hair, she
pretended it was Drogo holding her ... only somehow his face kept turning into Daario's. If I want Daario
I need only say so. She lay with Irri's legs entangled in her own. His eyes looked almost purple today...
Dany's dreams were dark that night, and she woke three times from half-remembered nightmares. After
the third time she was too restless to return to sleep. Moonlight streamed through the slanting windows,
silvering the marble floors. A cool breeze was blowing through the open terrace doors. Irri slept soundly
beside her, her lips slightly parted, one dark brown nipple peeping out above the sleeping silks. For a
moment Dany was tempted, but it was Drogo she wanted, or perhaps Daario. Not Irri. The maid was
sweet and skillful, but all her kisses tasted of duty.
She rose, leaving Irri asleep in the moonlight. Jhiqui and Missandei slept in their own beds. Dany slipped
on a robe and padded barefoot across the marble floor, out onto the terrace. The air was chilly, but she
liked the feel of grass between her toes and the sound of the leaves whispering to one another. Wind
ripples chased each other across the surface of the little bathing pool and made the moon's reflection
dance and shimmer.
She leaned against a low brick parapet to look down upon the city. Meereen was sleeping too. Lost in
dreams of kinder days, perhaps. Night covered the streets like a black blanket, hiding the corpses and
the grey rats that came up from the sewers to feast on them, the swarms of stinging flies. Distant torches
glimmered red and yellow where her sentries walked their rounds, and here and there she saw the faint
glow of lanterns bobbing down an alley. Perhaps one was Ser Jorah, leading his horse slowly toward the
gate. Farewell, old bear. Farewell, betrayer.
She was Daenerys Stormborn, the Unburnt, khaleesi and queen, Mother of Dragons, slayer of
warlocks, breaker of chains, and there was no one in the world that she could trust.
"Your Grace?" Missandei stood at her elbow wrapped in a bedrobe, wooden sandals on her feet. "I
woke, and saw that you were gone. Did you sleep well? What are you looking at?"
"My city," said Dany. "I was looking for a house with a red door, but by night all the doors are black."
"A red door?" Missandei was puzzled. "What house is this?"
"No house. It does not matter." Dany took the younger girl by the hand. "Never lie to me, Missandei.


Never betray me."
"I never would," Missandei promised. "Look, dawn comes."
The sky had turned a cobalt blue from the horizon to the zenith, and behind the line of low hills to the
east a glow could be seen, pale gold and oyster pink. Dany held Missandei's hand as they watched the
sun come up. All the grey bricks became red and yellow and blue and green and orange. The scarlet
sands of the fighting pits transformed them into bleeding sores before her eyes. Elsewhere the golden
dome of the Temple of the Graces blazed bright, and bronze stars winked along the walls where the light
of the rising sun touched the spikes on the helms of the Unsullied. On the terrace, a few flies stirred
sluggishly. A bird began to
chirp in the persimmon tree, and then two more. Dany cocked her head to hear their song, but it was not
long before the sounds of the waking city drowned them out.
The sounds of my city.
That morning she summoned her captains and commanders to the garden, rather than descending to the
audience chamber. "Aegon the Conqueror brought fire and blood to Westeros, but afterward he gave
them peace, prosperity, and justice. But all I have brought to Slaver's Bay is death and ruin. I have been
more khal than queen, smashing and plundering, then moving on."
"There is nothing to stay for," said Brown Ben Plumm.
"Your Grace, the slavers brought their doom on themselves," said Daario Naharis.
"You have brought freedom as well," Missandei pointed out.
"Freedom to starve?" asked Dany sharply. "Freedom to die? Am I a dragon, or a harpy?" Am I mad?
Do I have the taint?
"A dragon," Ser Barristan said with certainty. "Meereen is not Westeros, Your Grace."
"But how can I rule seven kingdoms if I cannot rule a single city?" He had no answer to that. Dany
turned away from them, to gaze out over the city once again. "My children need time to heal and learn.
My dragons need time to grow and test their wings. And I need the same. I will not let this city go the
way of Astapor. I will not let the harpy of Yunkai chain up those I've freed all over again." She turned
back to look at their faces. "I will not march."
"What will you do then, Khaleesi?" asked Rakharo.
"Stay," she said. "Rule. And be a queen."
Chapter 72
JAIME


The king sat at the head of the table, a stack of cushions under his arse, signing each document as it was
presented to him.
"Only a few more, Your Grace," Ser Kevan Lannister assured him. "This is a bill of attainder against
Lord Edmure Tully, stripping him of Riverrun and all its lands and incomes, for rebelling against his lawful
king. This is a similar attainder, against his uncle Ser Brynden Tully, the Blackfish." Tornmen signed them
one after the other, dipping the quill carefully and writing his name in a broad childish hand.
Jaime watched from the foot of the table, thinking of all those lords who aspired to a seat on the king's
small council. They can bloody well have mine. If this was power, why did it taste like tedium? He did
not feel especially powerful, watching Tommen dip his quill in the inkpot again. He felt bored.
And sore. Every muscle in his body ached, and his ribs and shoulders were bruised from the battering
they'd gotten, courtesy of Ser Addam Marbrand. just thinking of it made him wince. He could only hope
the man would keep his mouth shut. Jaime had known Marbrand since he was a boy, serving as a page
at Casterly Rock; he trusted him as much as he trusted anyone. Enough to ask him to take up shields and
tourney swords. He had wanted to know if he could fight with his left hand.
And now I do. The knowledge was more painful than the beating that Ser Addarn had given him, and
the beating was so bad he could hardly dress himself this morning. If they had been fighting in earnest,
Jaime would have died two dozen deaths. It seemed so simple, changing hands. It wasn't. Every instinct
he had was wrong. He had to think about
everything, where once he'd just moved. And while he was thinking, Marbrand was thumping him. His
left hand couldn't even seem to hold a longsword properly; Ser Addam. had disarmed him thrice, sending
his blade spinning.
"This grants said lands, incomes, and castle to Ser Emmon Frey and his lady wife, Lady Genna." Ser
Kevan presented another sheaf of parchments to the king. Tommen dipped and signed. "This is a decree
of legitimacy for a natural son of Lord Roose Bolton of the Dreadfort. And this names Lord Bolton your
Warden of the North." Tommen dipped, signed, dipped, signed. "This grants Ser Rolph Spicer title to the
castle Castamere and raises him to the rank of lord." Tommen scrawled his name.
I should have gone to Ser Ilyn Payne, Jaime reflected. The King's justice was not a friend as Marbrand
was, and might well have beat him bloody ... but without a tongue, he was not like to boast of it
afterward. All it would take would be one chance remark by Ser Addam. in his cups, and the whole
world would soon know how useless he'd become. Lord Commander of the Kingsguard. It was a cruel
jape, that ... though not quite so cruel as the gift his father had sent him.
"This is your royal pardon for Lord Gawen Westerling, his lady wife, and his daughter Jeyne, welcoming
them back into the king's peace," Ser Kevan said. "This is a pardon for Lord Jonos Bracken of Stone
Hedge. This is a pardon for Lord Vance. This for Lord Goodbrook. This for Lord Mooton of
Maidenpool."
Jaime pushed himself to his feet. "You seem to have these matters well in hand, Uncle. I shall leave His
Grace to you."
"As you wish." Ser Kevan rose as well. "Jaime, you should go to your father. This breach between you -
"
" - is his doing. Nor will he mend it by sending me mocking gifts. Tell him that, if you can pry him away


from the Tyrells long enough."
His uncle looked distressed. "The gift was heartfelt. We thought that it might encourage you - "
" - to grow a new hand?" Jaime turned to Tommen. Though he had Joffrey's golden curls and green
eyes, the new king shared little else with his late brother. He inclined to plumpness, his face was pink and
round, and he even liked to read. He is still shy of nine, this son of mine. The boy is not the man. It would
be seven years before Tommen was ruling in his own right. Until then the realm would remain firmly in the
hands of his lord grandfather. "Sire," he asked, "do I have your leave to go?"
"As you like, Ser Uncle." Tommen looked back to Ser Kevan. "Can I seal them now, Great-Uncle?"
Pressing his royal seal into the hot wax was his favorite part of being king, so far.
Jaime strode from the council chamber. Outside the door he found Ser
Meryn Trant standing stiff at guard in white scale armor and snowy cloak. If this one should learn how
feeble I am, or Kettleblack or Blount should hear of it ... "Remain here until His Grace is done," he said,
"then escort him back to Maegor's."
Trant inclined his head. "As you say, my lord."
The outer ward was crowded and noisy that morning. Jaime made for the stables, where a large group
of men were saddling their horses. "Steelshanks!" he called. "Are you off, then?"
"As soon as m'lady is mounted," said Steelshanks Walton. "My lord of Bolton expects us. Here she is
now."
A groom led a fine grey mare out the stable door. On her back was mounted a skinny hollow-eyed girl
wrapped in a heavy cloak. Grey, it was, like the dress beneath it, and trimmed with white satin. The clasp
that pinned it to her breast was wrought in the shape of a wolf 's head with slitted opal eyes. The girl's
long brown hair blew wild in the wind. She had a pretty face, he thought, but her eyes were sad and
wary.
When she saw him, she inclined her head. "Ser Jaime," she said in a thin anxious voice. "You are kind to
see me off."
Jaime studied her closely. "You know me, then?"
She bit her lip. "You may not recall, my lord, as I was littler then ... but I had the honor to meet you at
Winterfell when King Robert came to visit my father Lord Eddard." She lowered her big brown eyes and
mumbled, "I'm Arya Stark."
Jaime had never paid much attention to Arya Stark, but it seemed to him that this girl was older. "I
understand you're to be married."
"I am to wed Lord Bolton's son, Ramsay. He used to be a Snow, but His Grace has made him a Bolton.
They say he's very brave. I am so happy."
Then why do you sound so frightened? "I wish you joy, my lady." Jaime turned back to Steelshanks.
"You have the coin you were promised?"


"Aye, and we've shared it out. You have my thanks." The northman grinned. "A Lannister always pays
his debts."
"Always," said Jaime, with a last glance at the girl. He wondered if there was much resemblance. Not
that it mattered. The real Arya Stark was buried in some unmarked grave in Flea Bottom in all likelihood.
With her brothers dead, and both parents, who would dare name this one a fraud? "Good speed," he
told Steelshanks. Nage raised his peace banner, and the northmen formed a column as ragged as their fur
cloaks and trotted out the castle gate. The thin girl on the grey mare looked small and forlorn in their
midst.
A few of the horses still shied away from the dark splotch on the hard-packed ground where the earth
had drunk the life's blood of the stableboy Gregor Clegane had killed so clumsily. The sight of it made
Jaime angry all over again. He had told his Kingsguard to keep the crowd out of the way, but that oaf
Ser Boros had let himself be distracted by the duel. The fool boy himself shared some of the blame, to be
sure; the dead Domishman as well. And Clegane most of all. The blow that took the boy's arm off had
been mischance, but that second cut ...
Well, Gregor is paying for it now Grand Maester Pycelle was tending to the man's wounds, but the
howls heard ringing from the maester's chambers suggested that the healing was not going as well as it
might. "The flesh mortifies and the wounds ooze pus," Pycelle told the council. "Even maggots will not
touch such foulness. His convulsions are so violent that I have had to gag him to prevent him from biting
off his tongue. I have cut away as much tissue as I dare, and treated the rot with boiling wine and bread
mold, to no avail. The veins in his arm are turning black. When I leeched him, all the leeches died. My
lords, I must know what malignant substance Prince Oberyn used on his spear. Let us detain these other
Domishmen until they are more forthcoming."
Lord Tywin had refused him. "There will be trouble enough with Sunspear over Prince Oberyn's death. I
do not mean to make matters worse by holding his companions captive."
"Then I fear Ser Gregor may die."
"Undoubtedly. I swore as much in the letter I sent to Prince Doran with his brother's body. But it must
be seen to be the sword of the King's justice that slays him, not a poisoned spear. Heal him."
Grand Maester Pycelle blinked in dismay. "MY lord -
"Heal him," Lord Tywin said again, vexed. "You are aware that Lord Varys has sent fishermen into the
waters around Dragonstone. They report that only a token force remains to defend the island. The Lyseni
are gone from the bay, and the great part of Lord Stannis's strength with them."
"Well and good," announced Pycelle. "Let Stannis rot in Lys, I say. We are well rid of the man and his
ambitions."
"Did you turn into an utter fool when Tyrion shaved your beard? This is Stannis Baratheon. The man will
fight to the bitter end and then some. If he is gone, it can only mean he intends to resume the war. Most
likely he will land at Storm's End and try and rouse the storm lords. If so, he's finished. But a bolder man
might roll the dice for Dome. If he should win Sunspear to his cause, he might prolong this war for years.
So we will not offend the Martells any further, for any reason. The Domishmen are free to go, and you
will heal Ser Gregor."


And so the Mountain screamed, day and night. Lord Tywin Lannister could cow even the Stranger, it
would seem.
As Jaime climbed the winding steps of White Sword Tower, he could hear Ser Boros snoring in his cell.
Ser Balon's door was shut as well; he
had the king tonight, and would sleep all day. Aside from Blount's snores, the tower was very quiet. That
suited Jaime well enough. I ought to rest myself. Last night, after his dance with Ser Addam, he'd been
too sore to sleep.
But when he stepped into his bedchamber, he found his sister waiting for him.
She stood beside the open window, looking over the curtain walls and out to sea. The bay wind swirled
around her, flattening her gown against her body in a way that quickened Jaime's pulse. It was white, that
gown, like the hangings on the wall and the draperies on his bed. Swirls of tiny emeralds brightened the
ends of her wide sleeves and spiraled down her bodice. Larger emeralds were set in the golden
spiderweb that bound her golden hair. The gown was cut low, to bare her shoulders and the tops of her
breasts. She is so beautiful. He wanted nothing more than to take her in his arms.
"Cersei." He closed the door softly. "Why are you here?"
"Where else could I go?" When she turned to him there were tears in her eyes. "Father's made it clear
that I am no longer wanted on the council. Jaime, won't you talk to him?"
Jaime took off his cloak and hung it from a peg on the wall. "I talk to Lord Tywin every day."
"Must you be so stubborn? All he wants..."
". . . is to force me from the Kingsguard and send me back to Casterly Rock."
"That need not be so terrible. He is sending me back to Casterly Rock as well. He wants me far away,
so he'll have a free hand with Tommen. Tornmen is my son, not his!"
"Tommen is the king."
"He is a boy! A frightened little boy who saw his brother murdered at his own wedding. And now they
are telling him that he must marry. The girl is twice his age and twice a widow!"
He eased himself into a chair, trying to ignore the ache of bruised muscles. "The Tyrells are insisting. I
see no harm in it. Tommen's been lonely since Myrcella went to Dorne. He likes having Margaery and
her ladies about. Let them wed."
"He is your son. . . "
"He is my seed. He's never called me Father. No more than Joffrey ever did. You warned me a
thousand times never to show any undue interest in them."
"To keep them safe! You as well. How would it have looked if my brother had played the father to the
king's children? Even Robert might have grown suspicious."
"Well, he's beyond suspicion now." Robert's death still left a bitter


taste in Jaime's mouth. It should have been me who killed him, not Cersei. "I only wished he'd died at my
hands." When I still had two of them. "If I'd let kingslaying become a habit, as he liked to say, I could
have taken you as my wife for all the world to see. I'm not ashamed of loving you, only of the things I've
done to hide it. That boy at Winterfell . . . "
"Did I tell you to throw him out the window? If you'd gone hunting as I begged you, nothing would have
happened. But no, you had to have me, you could not wait until we returned to the city."
"I'd waited long enough. I hated watching Robert stumble to your bed every night, always wondering if
maybe this night he'd decide to claim his rights as husband." Jaime suddenly remembered something else
that troubled him about Winterfell. "At Riverrun, Catelyn Stark seemed convinced I'd sent some footpad
to slit her son's throat. That I'd given him a dagger."
"That," she said scornfully. "Tyrion asked me about that."
"There was a dagger. The scars on Lady Catelyn's hands were real enough, she showed them to me.
Did you ... ?"
"Oh, don't be absurd." Cersei closed the window. "Yes, I hoped the boy would die. So did you. Even
Robert thought that would have been for the best. 'We kill our horses when they break a leg, and our
dogs when they go blind, but we are too weak to give the same mercy to crippled children/ he told me.
He was blind himself at the time, from drink."
Robert? Jaime had guarded the king long enough to know that Robert Baratheon said things in his cups
that he would have denied angrily the next day. "Were you alone when Robert said this?"
"You don't think he said it to Ned Stark, I hope? Of course we were alone. Us and the children." Cersei
removed her hairnet and draped it over a bedpost, then shook out her golden curls. "Perhaps Myrcella
sent this man with the dagger, do you think so?"
it was meant as mockery, but she'd cut right to the heart of it, Jaime saw at once. "Not Myrcella.
Joffrey."
Cersei frowned. "Joffrey had no love for Robb Stark, but the younger boy was nothing to him. He was
only a child himself . "
"A child hungry for a pat on the head from that sot you let him believe was his father." He had an
uncomfortable thought. "Tyrion almost died because of this bloody dagger. If he knew the whole thing
was Joffrey's work, that might be why..."
"I don't care why," Cersei said. "He can take his reasons down to hell with him. If you had seen how Joff
died ... he fought, Jaime, he fought for every breath, but it was as if some malign spirit had its hands about
his throat. He had such terror in his eyes ... When he was little, held run to me when he was scared or
hurt and I would protect him. But that
night there was nothing I could do. Tyrion murdered him in front of me, and there was nothing I could
do." Cersei sank to her knees before his chair and took Jaime's good hand between both of hers. "Joff is
dead and Myrcella's in Dome. Tommen's all I have left. You mustn't let Father take him from me. Jaime,
please."


"Lord Tywin has not asked for my approval. I can talk to him, but he will not listen..."
"He will if you agree to leave the Kingsguard.-
"I'm not leaving the Kingsguard."
His sister fought back tears. "Jaime, you're my shining knight. You cannot abandon me when I need you
most! He is stealing my son, sending me away ... and unless you stop him, Father is going to force me to
wed again!"
Jaime should not have been surprised, but he was. The words were a blow to his gut harder than any
that Ser Addam Marbrand had dealt him. "Who? "
"Does it matter? Some lord or other. Someone Father thinks he needs. I don't care. I will not have
another husband. You are the only man I want in my bed, ever again."
"Then tell him that!"
She pulled her hands away. "You are talking madness again. Would you have us ripped apart, as
Mother did that time she caught us playing? Tommen would lose the throne, Myrcella her marriage ... I
want to be your wife, we belong to each other, but it can never be, Jaime. We are brother and sister."
"The Targaryens . . .
"We are not Targaryens!"
"Quiet," he said, scornfully. "So loud, you'll wake my Sworn Brothers. We can't have that, now, can
we? People might learn that you had come to see me."
'Jaime," she sobbed, "don't you think I want it as much as you do? it makes no matter who they wed me
to, I want you at my side, I want you in my bed, I want you inside me. Nothing has changed between us.
Let me prove it to you." She pushed up his tunic and began to fumble with the laces of his breeches.
Jaime felt himself responding. "No," he said, "not here." They had never done it in White Sword Tower,
much less in the Lord Commander's chambers. "Cersei, this is not the place."
"You took me in the sept. This is no different." She drew out his cock and bent her head over it.
Jaime pushed her away with the stump of his right hand. "No. Not here, I said." He forced himself to
stand.
For an instant he could see confusion in her bright green eyes, and fear
as well. Then rage replaced it. Cersei gathered herself together, got to her feet, straightened her skirts.
"Was it your hand they hacked off in Harrenhal, or your manhood?" As she shook her head, her hair
tumbled around her bare white shoulders. "I was a fool to come. You lacked the courage to avenge
Joffrey, why would I think that you'd protect Tommen? Tell me, if the imp had killed all three of your
children, would that have made you wroth?"
"Tyrion is not going to harm Tornmen or Myrcella. I am still not certain he killed Joffrey."


Her mouth twisted in anger. "How can you say that? After all his threats - "
"Threats mean nothing. He swears he did not do it."
"Oh, he swears, is that it? And dwarfs don't lie, is that what you think?"
"Not to me. No more than you would."
"You great golden fool. He's lied to you a thousand times, and so have L" She bound up her hair again,
and scooped up the hairnet from the bedpost where she'd hung it. "Think what you will. The little monster
is in a black cell, and soon Ser Ilyn will have his head off. Perhaps you'd like it for a keepsake." She
glanced at the pillow. "He can watch over you as you sleep alone in that cold white bed. Until his eyes rot
out, that is."
"You had best go, Cersei. You're making me angry."
"Oh, an angry cripple. How terrifying." She laughed. "A pity Lord Tywin Lannister never had a son. I
could have been the heir he wanted, but I lacked the cock. And speaking of such, best tuck yours away,
brother. it looks rather sad and small, hanging from your breeches like that."
When she was gone Jaime took her advice, fumbling one-handed at his laces. He felt a bone-deep ache
in his phantom fingers. I've lost a hand, a father, a son, a sister, and a lover, and soon enough I will lose a
brother. And yet they keep telling me House Lannister won this war.
Jaime donned his cloak and went downstairs, where he found Ser Boros Blount having a cup of wine in
the common room. "When you're done with your drink, tell Ser Loras I'm ready to see her."
Ser Boros was too much of a coward to do much more than glower. "You are ready to see who?"
"Just tell Loras."
"Aye." Ser Boros drained his cup. "Aye, Lord Commander."
He took his own good time about it, though, or else the Knight of Flowers proved hard to find. Several
hours had passed by the time they arrived, the slim handsome youth and the big ugly maid. Jaime was
sitting alone in the round room, leafing idly through the White Book. "Lord
Commander," Ser Loras said, "you wished to see the Maid of Tarth?"
"I did." Jaime waved them closer with his left hand. "You have talked with her, I take it?"
"As you commanded, my lord."
"And?"
The lad tensed. "I ... it may be it happened as she says, ser. That it was Stannis. I cannot be certain."
"Varys tells me that the castellan of Storm's End perished strangely as well," said Jaime.
"Ser Cortnay Penrose," said Brienne sadly. "A good man."


"A stubborn man. One day he stood square in the way of the King of Dragonstone. The next he leapt
from a tower." Jaime stood. "Ser Loras, we will talk more of this later. You may leave Brienne with me."
The wench looked as ugly and awkward as ever, he decided when Tyrell left them. Someone had
dressed her in woman's clothes again, but this dress fit much better than that hideous pink rag the goat
had made her wear. "Blue is a good color on you, my lady," Jaime observed. "It goes well with your
eyes." She does have astonishing eyes.
Brienne glanced down at herself, flustered. "Septa Donyse padded out the bodice, to give it that shape.
She said you sent her to me." She lingered by the door, as if she meant to flee at any second. "You look .
. . "
"Different?" He managed a half-smile. "More meat on the ribs and fewer lice in my hair, that's all. The
stump's the same. Close the door and come here."
She did as he bid her. "The white cloak. . .
". . . is new, but I'm sure I'll soil it soon enough."
"That wasn't ... I was about to say that it becomes you."
She came closer, hesitant. "Jaime, did you mean what you told Ser Loras? About ... about King Renly,
and the shadow?"
Jaime shrugged. "I would have killed Renly myself if we'd met in battle, what do I care who cut his
throat?"
"You said I had honor. . . "
"I'm the bloody Kingslayer, remember? When I say you have honor, that's like a whore vouchsafing
your maidenhood." He leaned back and looked up at her. "Steelshanks is on his way back north, to
deliver Arya Stark to Roose Bolton."
"You gave her to him?" she cried, dismayed. "You swore an oath to Lady Catelyn . . . "
"With a sword at my throat, but never mind. Lady Catelyn's dead. I could not give her back her
daughters even if I had them. And the girl my father sent with Steelshanks was not Arya Stark."
"Not Arya Stark?"
"You heard me. My lord father found some skinny northern girl more
or less the same age with more or less the same coloring. He dressed her up in white and grey, gave her
a silver wolf to pin her cloak, and sent her off to wed Bolton's bastard." He lifted his stump to point at
her. "I wanted to tell you that before you went galloping off to rescue her and got yourself killed for no
good purpose. You're not half bad with a sword, but you're not good enough to take on two hundred
men by yourself."
Brienne shook her head. "When Lord Bolton learns that your father paid him with false coin..."
"Oh, he knows. Lannisters lie, remember? It makes no matter, this girl serves his purpose just as well.


Who is going to say that she isn't Arya Stark? Everyone the girl was close to is dead except for her
sister, who has disappeared."
"Why would you tell me all this, if it's true? You are betraying your father's secrets."
The Hand's secrets, he thought. I no longer have a father. "l pay my debts like every good little lion. I did
promise Lady Stark her daughters ... and one of them is still alive. My brother may know where she is,
but if so he isn't saying. Cersei is convinced that Sansa helped him murder Joffrey."
The wench's mouth got stubborn. "I will not believe that gentle girl a poisoner. Lady Catelyn said that
she had a loving heart. It was your brother. There was a trial, Ser Loras said."
"Two trials, actually. Words and swords both failed him. A bloody mess. Did you watch from your
window?"
"My cell faces the sea. I heard the shouting, though."
"Prince Oberyn of Dome is dead, Ser Gregor Clegane lies dying, and Tyrion stands condemned before
the eyes of gods and men. They're keeping him in a black cell till they kill him.
Brienne looked at him. "You do not believe he did it."
Jaime gave her a hard smile. "See, wench? We know each other too well. Tyrion's wanted to be me
since he took his first step, but he'd never follow me in kingslaying. Sansa Stark killed Joffrey. My
brother's kept silent to protect her. He gets these fits of gallantry from time to time. The last one cost him
a nose. This time it will mean his head."
"No," Brienne said. "It was not my lady's daughter. It could not have been her."
"There's the stubborn stupid wench that I remember."
She reddened. "My name is . . . "
"Brienne of Tarth." Jaime sighed. "I have a gift for you." He reached down under the Lord Commander's
chair and brought it out, wrapped in folds of crimson velvet.
Brienne approached as if the bundle was like to bite her, reached out a huge freckled hand, and flipped
back a fold of cloth. Rubies glimmered in the light. She picked the treasure up gingerly, curled her fingers
around
the leather grip, and slowly slid the sword free of its scabbard. Blood and black the ripples shone. A
finger of reflected light ran red along the edge. "Is this Valyrian steel? I have never seen such colors."
"Nor I. There was a time that I would have given my right hand to wield a sword like that. Now it
appears I have, so the blade is wasted on me. Take it." Before she could think to refuse, he went on. "A
sword so fine must bear a name. It would please me if you would call this one Oathkeeper. One more
thing. The blade comes with a price."
Her face darkened. "I told you, I will never serve. . . "
"... such foul creatures as us. Yes, I recall. Hear me out, Brienne. Both of us swore oaths concerning


Sansa Stark. Cersei means to see that the girl is found and killed, wherever she has gone to ground . . . "
Brienne's homely face twisted in fury. "If you believe that I would harm my lady's daughter for a sword,
you - "
"fust listen," he snapped, angered by her assumption. "I want you to find Sansa first, and get her
somewhere safe. How else are the two of us going to make good our stupid vows to your precious dead
Lady Catelyn?
The wench blinked. "I ... I thought ... " "I know what you thought." Suddenly Jaime was sick of the sight
of her. She bleats like a bloody sheep. "When Ned Stark died, his greatsword was given to the King's
justice," he told her. "But my father felt that such a fine blade was wasted on a mere headsman. He gave
Ser Ilyn a new sword, and had Ice melted down and reforged. There was enough metal for two new
blades. You're holding one. So you'll be defending Ned Stark's daughter with Ned Stark's own steel, if
that makes any difference to you."
"Ser, I ... I owe you an apolo . . .
He cut her off. "Take the bloody sword and go, before I change my mind. There's a bay mare in the
stables, as homely as you are but somewhat better trained. Chase after Steelshanks, search for Sansa, or
ride home to your isle of sapphires, it's naught to me. I don't want to look at you anymore."
"Jaime ...
"Kingslayer," he reminded her. "Best use that sword to clean the wax out of your ears, wench. We're
done."
Stubbornly, she persisted. "Joffrey was your. .
"My king. Leave it at that."
"You say Sansa killed him. Why protect her?"
Because Joff was no more to me than a squirt of seed in Cersei's cunt. And because he deserved to die.
"I have made kings and unmade them. Sansa Stark is my last chance for honor." Jaime smiled thinly.
"Besides, kingslayers should band together. Are you ever going to go?"
Her big hand wrapped tight around Oathkeeper. "I will. And I will find
the girl and keep her safe. For her lady mother's sake. And for yours." She bowed stiffly, whirled, and
went.
Jaime sat alone at the table while the shadows crept across the room. As dusk began to settle, he lit a
candle and opened the White Book to his own page. Quill and ink he found in a drawer. Beneath the last
line Ser Barristan had entered, he wrote in an awkward hand that might have done credit to a
six-year-old being taught his first letters by a maester:
Defeated in the Whispering Wood by the Young Wolf Robb Stark during the War of the Five Kings.
Held captive at Riverrun and ransomed for a promise unfuffilled. Captured again by the Brave
Companions, and maimed at the word of Vargo Hoat their captain, losing his sword hand to the blade of
Zollo the Fat. Returned safely to King's Landing by Brienne, the Maid of Tarth.


When he was done, more than three-quarters of his page still remained to be filled between the gold lion
on the crimson shield on top and the blank white shield at the bottom. Ser Gerold Hightower had begun
his history, and Ser Barristan Selmy had continued it, but the rest Jaime Lannister would need to write for
himself. He could write whatever he chose, henceforth.
Whatever he chose ...
Chapter 73
JON
The wind was blowing wild from the east, so strong the heavy cage would rock whenever a gust got it in
its teeth. It skirled along the Wall, shivering off the ice, making Jon's cloak flap against the bars. The sky
was slate grey, the sun no more than a faint patch of brightness behind the clouds. Across the killing
ground, he could see the glimmer of a thousand campfires burning, but their lights seemed small and
powerless against such gloom and cold.
A grim day. Jon Snow wrapped gloved hands around the bars and held tight as the wind hammered at
the cage once more. When he looked straight down past his feet, the ground was lost in shadow, as if he
were being lowered into some bottomless pit. Well, death is a bottomless pit of sorts, he reflected, and
when this day's work is done my name will be shadowed forever.
Bastard children were born from lust and lies, men said; their nature was wanton and treacherous. Once
Jon had meant to prove them wrong, to show his lord father that he could be as good and true a son as
Robb. I made a botch of that. Robb had become a hero king; if Jon was remembered at all, it would be
as a turncloak, an oathbreaker, and a murderer. He was glad that Lord Eddard was not alive to see his
shame.
I should have stayed in that cave with Ygritte. if there was a life beyond this one, he hoped to tell her
that. She will claw my face the way the eagle did, and curse me for a coward, but I'll tell her all the same.
He flexed his sword hand, as Maester Aemon had taught him. The habit had become part of him, and he
would need his fingers to be limber to have even half a chance of murdering Mance Rayder.
They had pulled him out this morning, after four days in the ice, locked up in a cell five by five by five,
too low for him to stand, too tight for him to stretch out on his back. The stewards had long ago
discovered that food and meat kept longer in the icy storerooms carved from the base of the Wall ... but
prisoners did not. "You will die in here, Lord Snow," Ser Alliser had said just before he closed the heavy
wooden door, and Jon had believed it. But this morning they had come and pulled him out again, and
marched him cramped and shivering back to the King's Tower, to stand before jowly Janos Slynt once
more
"That old maester says I cannot hang you," Slynt declared. "He has written Cotter Pyke, and even had
the bloody gall to show me the letter. He says you are no tumcloak."
"Aemon's lived too long, my lord," Ser Alliser assured him. "His wits have gone dark as his eyes."


"Aye," Slynt said. "A blind man with a chain about his neck, who does he think he is?"
Aemon Targaryen, Jon thought, a king's son and a king's brother and a king who might have been. But
he said nothing.
"Still," Slynt said, "I will not have it said that Janos Slynt hanged a man unjustly. I will not. I have decided
to give you one last chance to prove you are as loyal as you claim, Lord Snow. One last chance to do
your duty, yes!" He stood. "Mance Rayder wants to parley with us. He knows he has no chance now
that Janos Slynt has come, so he wants to talk, this King-beyond-the-Wall. But the man is craven, and
will not come to us. No doubt he knows I'd hang him. Hang him by his feet from the top of the Wall, on a
rope two hundred feet long! But he will not come. He asks that we send an envoy to him."
"We're sending you, Lord Snow." Ser Alliser smiled.
"Me." Jon's voice was flat. "Why me?"
"You rode with these wildlings," said Thome. "Mance Rayder knows you. He will be more inclined to
trust you."
That was so wrong Jon might have laughed. "You've got it backward. Mance suspected me from the
first. If I show up in his camp wearing a black cloak again and speaking for the Night's Watch, he'll know
that I betrayed him."
"He asked for an envoy, we are sending one," said Slynt. "If you are too craven to face this tumcloak
king, we can return you to your ice cell. This time without the furs, I think. Yes."
"No need for that, my lord," said Ser Alliser. "Lord Snow will do as we ask. He wants to show us that
he is no tumcloak. He wants to prove himself a loyal man of the Night's Watch."
Thome was much the more clever of the two, Jon realized; this had his stink all over it. He was trapped.
"I'll go," he said in a clipped, curt voice.
"M'lord, " Janos Slynt reminded him. "You'll address me - "
"I'll go, mylord. But you are making a mistake, mylord. You are sending the wrong man, my lord. just
the sight of me is going to anger Mance. My lord would have a better chance of reaching terms if he sent
-
"Terms?" Ser Alliser chuckled.
"Janos Slynt does not make terms with lawless savages, Lord Snow. No, he does not."
"We're not sending you to talk with Mance Rayder," Ser Alliser said. "We're sending you to kill him."
The wind whistled through the bars, and Jon Snow shivered. His leg was throbbing, and his head. He
was not fit to kill a kitten, yet here he was. The trap had teeth. With Maester Aemon insisting on Jon's
innocence, Lord Janos had not dared to leave him in the ice to die. This was better. "Our honor means
no more than our lives, so long as the realm is safe," Qhorin Halfhand had said in the Frostfangs. He must
remember that. Whether he slew Mance or only tried and failed, the free folk would kill him. Even
desertion was impossible, if he'd been so inclined; to Mance he was a proven liar and betrayer.


When the cage jerked to a halt, Jon swung down onto the ground and rattled Longclaw's hilt to loosen
the bastard blade in its scabbard. The gate was a few yards to his left, still blocked by the splintered ruins
of the turtle, the carcass of a mammoth ripening within. There were other corpses too, strewn amidst
broken barrels, hardened pitch, and patches of burnt grass, all shadowed by the Wall. Jon had no wish
to linger here. He started walking toward the wildling camp, past the body of a dead giant whose head
had been crushed by a stone. A raven was pulling out bits of brain from the giant's shattered skull. It
looked up as he walked by. "Snow," it screamed at him. "Snow, snow" Then it opened its wings and flew
away.
No sooner had he started out than a lone rider emerged from the wildling camp and came toward him.
He wondered if Mance was coming out to parley in no-man's-land. That might make it easier, though
nothing will make it easy. But as the distance between them diminished Jon saw that the horseman was
short and broad, with gold rings glinting on thick arms and a white beard spreading out across his
massive chest.
"Har!" Tormund boomed when they came together. "Jon Snow the crow. I feared we'd seen the last o'
you."
"I never knew you feared anything, Tormund."
That made the wildling grin. "Well said, lad. I see your cloak is black. Mance won't like that. If you've
come to change sides again, best climb back on that Wall o' yours."
"They've sent me to treat with the King-beyond-the-Wall."
"Treat?" Tormund laughed. "Now there's a word. Har! Mance wants to talk, that's true enough. Can't
say he'd want to talk with you, though."
"I'm the one they've sent."
"I see that. Best come along, then. You want to ride?"
"I can walk.,,
"You fought us hard here." Tormund turned his garron back toward the wildling camp. "You and your
brothers. I give you that. Two hundred dead, and a dozen giants. Mag himself went in that gate o' yours
and never did come out."
"He died on the sword of a brave man named Donal Noye."
"Aye? Some great lord was he, this Donal Noye? One of your shiny knights in their steel smallclothes?"
"A blacksmith. He only had one arm."
"A one-armed smith slew Mag the Mighty? Har! That must o' been a fight to see. Mance will make a
song of it, see if he don't." Tormund took a waterskin off his saddle and pulled the cork. "This will warm
us some. To Donal Noye, and Mag the Mighty." He took a swig, and handed it down to Jon.
"To Donal Noye, and Mag the Mighty." The skin was full of mead, but a mead so potent that it made
Jon's eyes water and sent tendrils of fire snaking through his chest. After the ice cell and the cold ride
down in the cage, the warmth was welcome.


Tormund took the skin back and downed another swig, then wiped his mouth. "The Magnar of Therm
swore t'us that he'd have the gate wide open, so all we'd need to do was stroll through singing. He was
going to bring the whole Wall down."
"He brought down part," Jon said. "On his head."
"Har!" said Tormund. "Well, I never had much use for Styr. When a man's got no beard nor hair nor
ears, you can't get a good grip on him when you fight." He kept his horse at a slow walk so Jon could
limp beside him. "What happened to that leg?"
"An arrow. One of Ygritte's, I think."
"That's a woman for you. One day she's kissing you, the next she's filling you with arrows."
"She's dead."
"Aye?" Tormund gave a sad shake of the head. "A waste. If I'd been ten years younger, I'd have stolen
her meself. That hair she had. Well, the hottest fires bum out quickest," He lifted the skin of mead. "To
Ygritte, kissed by fire!" He drank deep.
"To Ygritte, kissed by fire," Jon repeated when Tormund handed him back the skin. He drank even
deeper.
"Was it you killed her?"
"My brother." Jon had never learned which one, and hoped he never would.
"You bloody crows." Tormund's tone was gruff, yet strangely gentle.
"That Longspear stole me daughter. Munda, me little autumn apple. Took her right out o' my tent with all
four o' her brothers about. Toregg slept through it, the great lout, and Torwynd ... well, Torwynd the
Tame, that says all that needs saying, don't it? The young ones gave the lad a fight, though."
"And Munda?" asked Jon.
"She's my own blood," said Tormund proudly. "She broke his lip for him and bit one ear half off, and I
hear he's got so many scratches on his back he can't wear a cloak. She likes him well enough, though.
And why not? He don't fight with no spear, you know. Never has. So where do you think he got that
name? Har!"
Jon had to laugh. Even now, even here. Ygritte had been fond of Longspear Ryk. He hoped he found
some joy with Tormund's Munda. Someone needed to find some joy somewhere.
"You know nothing, Jon Snow," Ygritte would have told him. I know that I am going to die, he thought.
I know that much, at least. "All men die," he could almost hear her say, "and women too, and every beast
that flies or swims or runs. it's not the when o' dying that matters, it's the how of it, Jon Snow." Easy for
you to say, he thought back. You died brave in battle, storming the castle of a foe. I'm going to die a
turncloak and a killer. Nor would his death be quick, unless it came on the end of Mance's sword.
Soon they were among the tents. It was the usual wildling camp; a sprawling jumble of cookfires and


piss pits, children and goats wandering freely, sheep bleating among the trees, horse hides pegged up to
dry. There was no plan to it, no order, no defenses. But there were men and women and animals
everywhere.
Many ignored him, but for every one who went about his business there were ten who stopped to stare;
children squatting by the fires, old women in dog carts, cave dwellers with painted faces, raiders with
claws and snakes and severed heads painted on their shields, all turned to have a look. Jon saw
spearwives too, their long hair streaming in the piney wind that sighed between the trees.
There were no true hills here, but Mance Rayder's white fur tent had been raised on a spot of high stony
ground right on the edge of the trees. The King-beyond-the-Wall was waiting outside, his ragged
red-and-black cloak blowing in the wind. Harma Dogshead was with him, Jon saw, back from her raids
and feints along the Wall, and Varamyr Sixskins as well, attended by his shadowcat and two lean grey
wolves.
When they saw who the Watch had sent, Harma turned her head and spat, and one of Varamyr's
wolves bared its teeth and growled. "You must be very brave or very stupid, Jon Snow," Mance Rayder
said, "to come back to us wearing a black cloak."
"What else would a man of the Night's Watch wear?"
"Kill him," urged Harma. "Send his body back up in that cage o' theirs and tell them to send us someone
else. I'll keep his head for my standard. A turncloak's worse than a dog."
"I warned you he was false." Varamyr's tone was mild, but his shadowcat was staring at Jon hungrily
through slitted grey eyes. "I never did like the smell o' him."
"Pull in your claws, beastling." Tormund Giantsbane swung down off his horse. "The lad's here to hear.
You lay a paw on him, might be I'll take me that shadowskin cloak I been wanting."
"Tormund Crowlover," Harma sneered. "You are a great sack o'wind, old man."
The skinchanger was grey-faced, round-shouldered, and bald, a mouse of a man with a wolfling's eyes.
"Once a horse is broken to the saddle, any man can mount him," he said in a soft voice. "Once a beast's
been joined to a man, any skinchanger can slip inside and ride him. Orell was withering inside his
feathers, so I took the eagle for my own. But the joining works both ways, warg. Orell lives inside me
now, whispering how much he hates you. And I can soar above the Wall, and see with eagle eyes."
"So we know," said Mance. "We know how few you were, when you stopped the turtle. We know how
many came from Eastwatch. We know how your supplies have dwindled. Pitch, oil, arrows, spears.
Even your stair is gone, and that cage can only lift so many. We know. And now you know we know."
He opened the flap of the tent. "Come inside. The rest of you, wait here."
"What, even me?" said Tormund.
"Particularly you. Always."
It was warm within. A small fire burned beneath the smoke holes, and a brazier smouldered near the pile
of furs where Dalla lay, pale and sweating. Her sister was holding her hand. Val, Jon remembered. "I was
sorry when Jarl fell," he told her.


Val looked at him with pale grey eyes. "He always climbed too fast." She was as fair as he'd
remembered, slender, full-breasted, graceful even at rest, with high sharp cheekbones and a thick braid
of honey-colored hair that fell to her waist.
"Dalla's time is near," Mance explained. "She and Val will stay. They know what I mean to say."
Jon kept his face as still as ice. Foul enough to slay a man in his own tent under truce. Must I murder him
in front of his wife as their child is being born? He closed the fingers of his sword hand. Mance was not
wearing armor, but his own sword was sheathed on his left hip. And there were other weapons in the
tent, daggers and dirks, a bow and a
quiver of arrows, a bronze-headed spear lying beside that big black ...
... horn.
Jon sucked in his breath.
A warhorn, a bloody great warhorn.
"Yes," Mance said. "The Horn of Winter, that Joramun once blew to wake giants from the earth."
The horn was huge, eight feet along the curve and so wide at the mouth that he could have put his arm
inside up to the elbow. If this came from an aurochs, it was the biggest that ever lived. At first he thought
the bands around it were bronze, but when he moved closer he realized they were gold. Old gold, more
brown than yellow, and graven with runes.
"Ygritte said you never found the hom."
"Did you think only crows could lie? I liked you well enough, for a bastard ... but I never trusted you. A
man needs to earn my trust."
Jon faced him. "If you've had the Hom of Joramun all along, why haven't you used it? Why bother
building turtles and sending Thenns to kill us in our beds? If this hom is all the songs say, why not just
sound it and be done?"
It was Dalla who answered him, Dalla great with child, lying on her pile of furs beside the brazier. "We
free folk know things you kneelers have forgotten. Sometimes the short road is not the safest, Jon Snow.
The Homed Lord once said that sorcery is a sword without a hilt. There is no safe way to grasp it."
Mance ran a hand along the curve of the great horn. "No man goes hunting with only one arrow in his
quiver," he said. "I had hoped that Styr and Jarl would take your brothers unawares, and open the gate
for us. I drew your garrison away with feints and raids and secondary attacks. Bowen Marsh swallowed
that lure as I knew he would, but your band of cripples and orphans proved to be more stubborn than
anticipated. Don't think you've stopped us, though. The truth is, you are too few and we are too many. I
could continue the attack here and still send ten thousand men to cross the Bay of Seals on rafts and take
Eastwatch from the rear. I could storm the Shadow Tower too, I know the approaches as well as any
man alive. I could send men and mammoths to dig out the gates at the castles you've abandoned, all of
them at once."
"Why don't you, then?" Jon could have drawn Longclaw then, but he wanted to hear what the wildling
had to say.


"Blood," said Mance Rayder. "I'd win in the end, yes, but you'd bleed me, and my people have bled
enough."
"Your losses haven't been that heavy."
"Not at your hands." Mance studied Jon's face. "You saw the Fist of
the First Men. You know what happened there. You know what we are facing."
"The Others . . .
"They grow stronger as the days grow shorter and the nights colder. First they kill you, then they send
your dead against you. The giants have not been able to stand against them, nor the Thenns, the ice river
clans, the Homfoots."
"Nor you?"
"Nor me." There was anger in that admission, and bitterness too deep for words. "Raymun Redbeard,
Bael the Bard, Gendel and Gorne, the Homed Lord, they all came south to conquer, but I've come with
my tail between my legs to hide behind your Wall." He touched the hom. again. "If I sound the Hom of
Winter, the Wall will fall. Or so the songs would have me believe. There are those among my people who
want nothing more..."
"But once the Wall is fallen," Dalla said, "what will stop the Others?"
Mance gave her a fond smile. "It's a wise woman I've found. A true queen." He turned back to Jon. "Go
back and tell them to open their gate and let us pass. If they do, I will give them the hom, and the Wall
will stand until the end of days."
Open the gate and let them pass. Easy to say, but what must follow? Giants camping in the ruins of
Winterfell? Cannibals in the wolfswood, chariots sweeping across the barrowlands, free folk stealing the
daughters of shipwrights and silversmiths from White Harbor and fishwives off the Stony Shore? "Are
you a true king?" Jon asked suddenly.
"I've never had a crown on my head or sat my arse on a bloody throne, if that's what you're asking,"
Mance replied. "My birth is as low as a man's can get, no septon's ever smeared my head with oils, I
don't own any castles, and my queen wears furs and amber, not silk and sapphires. I am my own
champion, my own fool, and my own harpist. You don't become King-beyond-the-Wall because your
father was. The free folk won't follow a name, and they don't care which brother was bom first. They
follow fighters. When I left the Shadow Tower there were five men making noises about how they might
be the stuff of kings. Tormund was one, the Magnar another. The other three I slew, when they made it
plain they'd sooner fight than follow."
"You can kill your enemies," Jon said bluntly, "but can you rule your friends? If we let your people pass,
are you strong enough to make them keep the king's peace and obey the laws?"
"Whose laws? The laws of Winterfell and King's Landing?" Mance laughed. "When we want laws we'll
make our own. You can keep your king's justice too, and your king's taxes. I'm offering you the hom, not
our freedom. We will not kneel to you."


"What if we refuse the offer?" Jon had no doubt that they would. The Old Bear might at least have
listened, though he would have balked at the notion of letting thirty or forty thousand wildlings loose on
the Seven Kingdoms. But Alliser Thorne and Janos Slynt would dismiss the notion out of hand.
"If you refuse," Mance Rayder said, "Tormund Giantsbane will sound the Horn of Winter three days
hence, at dawn."
He could carry the message back to Castle Black and tell them of the horn, but if he left Mance still alive
Lord Janos and Ser Alliser would seize on that as proof that he was a tumcloak. A thousand thoughts
flickered through Jon's head. If I can destroy the horn, smash it here and now ... but before he could
begin to think that through, he heard the low moan of some other horn, made faint by the tent's hide
walls. Mance heard it too. Frowning, he went to the door. Jon followed.
The warhom was louder outside. Its call had stirred the wildling camp. Three Homfoot men jogged past,
carrying long spears. Horses were whinnying and snorting, giants roaring in the Old Tongue, and even the
mammoths were restless.
"Outrider's horn," Tormund told Mance.
"Something's coming." Varamyr sat crosslegged on the half-frozen ground, his wolves circled restlessly
around him. A shadow swept over him, and Jon looked up to see the eagle's blue-grey wings. "Coming,
from the east."
When the dead walk, walls and stakes and swords mean nothing, he remembered. You cannot fight the
dead, Jon Snow No man knows that half so well as me.
Harma scowled. "East? The wights should be behind us."
"East," the skinchanger repeated. "Something's coming."
"The Others?" Jon asked.
Mance shook his head. "The Others never come when the sun is up." Chariots were rattling across the
killing ground, jammed with riders waving spears of sharpened bone. The king groaned. "Where the
bloody hell do they think they're going? Quenn, get those fools back where they belong. Someone bring
my horse. The mare, not the stallion. I'll want my armor too." Mance glanced suspiciously at the Wall.
Atop the icy parapets, the straw soldiers stood collecting arrows, but there was no sign of any other
activity. "Harma, mount up your raiders. Tormund, find your sons and give me a triple line of spears."
"Aye," said Tormund, striding off.
The mousy little skinchanger closed his eyes and said, "I see them. They're coming along the streams and
game trails..."
"Who?"
"Men. Men on horses. Men in steel and men in black."
"Crows." Mance made the word a curse. He turned on Jon. "Did my old brothers think they'd catch me
with my breeches down if they attacked while we were talking?"


"If they planned an attack they never told me about it." Jon did not believe it. Lord Janos lacked the men
to attack the wildling camp. Besides, he was on the wrong side of the Wall, and the gate was sealed with
rubble. He had a different sort of treachery in mind, this can't be his work.
"If you're lying to me again, you won't be leaving here alive," Mance warned. His guards brought him his
horse and armor. Elsewhere around the camp, Jon saw people running at cross purposes, some men
forming up as if to storm the Wall while others slipped into the woods, women driving dog carts east,
mammoths wandering west. He reached back over his shoulder and drew Longclaw just as a thin line of
rangers emerged from the fringes of the wood three hundred yards away. They wore black mail, black
halfhelms, and black cloaks. Half-armored, Mance drew his sword. "You knew nothing of this, did you?"
he said to Jon, coldly.
Slow as honey on a cold morning, the rangers swept down on the wildling camp, picking their way
through clumps of gorse and stands of trees, over roots and rocks. Wildlings flew to meet them, shouting
war cries and waving clubs and bronze swords and axes made of flint, galloping headlong at their ancient
enemies. A shout, a slash, and a fine brave death, Jon had heard brothers say of the free folk's way of
fighting.
"Believe what you will," Jon told the King-beyond-the-Wall, "but I knew nothing of any attack."
Harma thundered past before Mance could reply, riding at the head of thirty raiders. Her standard went
before her; a dead dog impaled on a spear, raining blood at every stride. Mance watched as she
smashed into the rangers. "Might be you're telling it true," he said. "Those look like Eastwatch men.
Sailors on horses. Cotter Pyke always had more guts than sense. He took the Lord of Bones at Long
Barrow, he might have thought to do the same with me. If so, he's a fool. He doesn't have the men, he - "
"Mance!" the shout came. It was a scout, bursting from the trees on a lathered horse. "Mance, there's
more, they're all around us, iron men, iron, a host of iron men."
Cursing, Mance swung up into the saddle. "Varamyr, stay and see that no harm comes to Dalla." The
King-beyond-the-Wall pointed his sword at Jon. "And keep a few extra eyes on this crow. If he runs, rip
out his throat. "
"Aye, I'll do that." The skinchanger was a head shorter than Jon, slumped and soft, but that shadowcat
could disembowel him with one paw. "They're coming from the north too," Varamyr told Mance. "You
best go."
Mance donned his helm with its raven wings. His men were mounted up as well. "Arrowhead," Mance
snapped, "to me, form wedge." Yet when he slammed his heels into the mare and flew across the field at
the rangers, the men who raced to catch him lost all semblance of formation.
Jon took a step toward the tent, thinking of the Horn of Winter, but the shadowcat blocked him, tail
lashing. The beast's nostrils flared, and slaver ran from his curved front teeth. He smells my fear. He
missed Ghost more than ever then. The two wolves were behind him, growling.
"Banners," he heard Varamyr murmur, "I see golden banners, oh . . . " A mammoth lumbered by,
trumpeting, a half-dozen bowmen in the wooden tower on its back. "The king ... no..."
Then the skinchanger threw back his head and screamed.
The sound was shocking, ear-piercing, thick with agony. Varamyr fell, writhing, and the 'cat was


screaming too ... and high, high in the eastern sky, against the wall of cloud, Jon saw the eagle burning.
For a heartbeat it flamed brighter than a star, wreathed in red and gold and orange, its wings beating
wildly at the air as if it could fly from the pain. Higher it flew, and higher, and higher still.
The scream brought Val out of the tent, white-faced. "What is it, what's happened?" Varamyr's wolves
were fighting each other, and the shadowcat had raced off into the trees, but the man was still twisting on
the ground. "What's wrong with him?" Val demanded, horrified. "Where's Mance?"
"There." Jon pointed. "Gone to fight." The king led his ragged wedge into a knot of rangers, his sword
flashing.
"Gone? He can't be gone, not now. It's started."
"The battle?" He watched the rangers scatter before Harma's bloody dog's head. The raiders screamed
and hacked and chased the men in black back into the trees. But there were more men coming from the
wood, a column of horse. Knights on heavy horse, Jon saw. Harma had to regroup and wheel to meet
them, but half of her men had raced too far ahead.
"The birth!" Val was shouting at him.
Trumpets were blowing all around, loud and brazen. The wildlings have no trumpets, only warhorns.
They knew that as well as he did; the sound sent free folk running in confusion, some toward the fighting,
others away. A mammoth was stomping through a flock of sheep that three men were trying to herd off
west. The drums were beating as the wildlings ran to form squares and lines, but they were too late, too
disorganized, too slow. The enemy was emerging from the forest, from the east, the northeast, the north;
three great columns of heavy horse, all dark glinting steel and bright wool surcoats. Not the men of
Eastwatch, those had been no more than a line of scouts. An army. The king? Jon was as confused as the
wildlings. Could Robb have returned? Had the
boy on the iron Throne finally bestirred himself ? "You best get back inside the tent," he told Val.
Across the field one column had washed over Harma Dogshead. Another smashed into the flank of
Tormund's spearmen as he and his sons desperately tried to turn them. The giants were climbing onto
their mammoths, though, and the knights on their barded horses did not like that at all; he could see how
the coursers and destriers screamed and scattered at the sight of those lumbering mountains. But there
was fear on the wildling side as well, hundreds of women and children rushing away from the battle, some
of them blundering right under the hooves of garrons. He saw an old woman's dog cart veer into the path
of three chariots, to send them crashing into each other.
"Gods," Val whispered, "gods, why are they doing this?"
"Go inside the tent and stay with Dalla. It's not safe out here." It wouldn't be a great deal safer inside, but
she didn't need to hear that.
"I need to find the midwife," Val said.
"You're the midwife. I'll stay here until Mance comes back." He had lost sight of Mance but now he
found him again, cutting his way through a knot of mounted men. The mammoths had shattered the center
column, but the other two were closing like pincers. On the eastern edge of the camps, some archers
were loosing fire arrows at the tents. He saw a mammoth pluck a knight from his saddle and fling him
forty feet with a flick of its trunk. Wildlings streamed past, women and children running from the battle,


some with men hurrying them along. A few of them gave Jon dark looks but Longclaw was in his hand,
and no one troubled him. Even Varamyr fled, crawling off on his hands and knees.
More and more men were pouring from the trees, not only knights now but freeriders and mounted
bowmen and men-at-arms in jacks and kettle helms, dozens of men, hundreds of men. A blaze of
banners flew above them. The wind was whipping them too wildly for Jon to see the sigils, but he
glimpsed a seahorse, a field of birds, a ring of flowers. And yellow, so much yellow, yellow banners with
a red device, whose arms were those?
East and north and northeast, he saw bands of wildlings trying to stand and fight, but the attackers rode
right over them. The free folk still had the numbers, but the attackers had steel armor and heavy horses.
in the thickest part of the fray, Jon saw Mance standing tall in his stirrups. His red-and-black cloak and
raven-winged helm made him easy to pick out. He had his sword raised and men were rallying to him
when a wedge of knights smashed into them with lance and sword and longaxe. Mance's mare went up
on her hind legs, kicking, and a spear took her through the breast. Then the steel tide washed over him.
It's done, Jon thought, they're breaking. The wildlings were running, throwing down their weapons,
Hornfoot men and cave dwellers and
Thenns in bronze scales, they were running. Mance was gone, someone was waving Harma's head on a
pole, Tormund's lines had broken. Only the giants on their mammoths were holding, hairy islands in a red
steel sea. The fires were leaping from tent to tent and some of the tall pines were going up as well. And
through the smoke another wedge of armored riders came, on barded horses. Floating above them were
the largest banners yet, royal standards as big as sheets; a yellow one with long pointed tongues that
showed a flaming heart, and another like a sheet of beaten gold, with a black stag prancing and rippling in
the wind.
Robert, Jon thought for one mad moment, remembering poor Owen, but when the trumpets blew again
and the knights charged, the name they cried was "Stannis! Stannis! STANNIS!"
Jon turned away, and went inside the tent.
Chapter 74
ARYA
0utside the inn on a weathered gibbet, a woman's bones were twisting and rattling at every gust of wind.
I know this inn. There hadn't been a gibbet outside the door when she had slept here with her sister
Sansa under the watchful eye of Septa Mordane, though. "We don't want to go in," Arya decided
suddenly, "there might be ghosts."
"You know how long it's been since I had a cup of wine?" Sandor swung down from the saddle.
"Besides, we need to learn who holds the ruby ford. Stay with the horses if you want, it's no hair off my
arse."
"What if they know you?" Sandor no longer troubled to hide his face. He no longer seemed to care who


knew him. "They might want to take you captive."
"Let them try." He loosened his longsword in its scabbard, and pushed through the door.
Arya would never have a better chance to escape. She could ride off on Craven and take Stranger too.
She chewed her lip. Then she led the horses to the stables, and went in after him.
They know him. The silence told her that. But that wasn't the worst thing. She knew them too. Not the
skinny innkeep, nor the women, nor the fieldhands by the hearth. But the others. The soldiers. She knew
the soldiers.
"Looking for your brother, Sandor?" Polliver's hand was down the bodice of the girl on his lap, but now
he slid it out.
"Looking for a cup of wine. Innkeep, a flagon of red." Clegane threw a handful of coppers on the floor.
"I don't want no trouble, ser," the innkeep said.
"Then don't call me ser." His mouth twitched. "Are you deaf, fool? I ordered wine." As the man ran off,
Clegane shouted after him, "Two cups! The girl's thirsty too!"
There are only three, Arya thought. Polliver gave her a fleeting glance and the boy beside him never
looked at her at all, but the third one gazed long and hard. He was a man of middling height and build,
with a face so ordinary that it was hard to say how old he was. The Tickler. The Tickler and Polliver
both. The boy was a squire, judging by his age and dress. He had a big white pimple on one side of his
nose, and some red ones on his forehead. "is this the lost puppy Ser Gregor spoke of?" he asked the
Tickler. "The one who piddled in the rushes and ran off?"
The Tickler put a warning hand on the boy's arm, and gave a short sharp shake of his head. Arya read
that plain enough.
The squire didn't, or else he didn't care. "Ser said his puppy brother tucked his tail between his legs
when the battle got too warm at King's Landing. He said he ran off whimpering." He gave the Hound a
stupid mocking grin.
Clegane studied the boy and never said a word. Polliver shoved the girl off his lap and got to his feet.
"The lad's drunk," he said. The man-atarms was almost as tall as the Hound, though not so heavily
muscled. A spade-shaped beard covered his jaws and jowls, thick and black and neatly trimmed, but his
head was more bald than not. "He can't hold his wine, is all."
"Then he shouldn't drink."
"The puppy doesn't scare . . . " the boy began, till the Tickler casually twisted his ear between thumb and


forefinger. The words became a squeal of pain.
The innkeep came scurrying back with two stone cups and a flagon on a pewter platter. Sandor lifted
the flagon to his mouth. Arya could see the muscles in his neck working as he gulped. When he slammed
it back down on the table, half the wine was gone. "Now you can pour. Best pick up those coppers too,
it's the only coin you're like to see today."
"We'll pay when we're done drinking," said Polliver.
"When you're done drinking you'll tickle the innkeep to see where he keeps his gold. The way you
always do."
The innkeep suddenly remembered something in the kitchen. The locals were leaving too, and the girls
were gone. The only sound in the common room was the faint crackling of the fire in the hearth. We
should go too, Arya knew.
"If you're looking for Ser, you come too late," Polliver said. "He was at Harrenhal, but now he's not. The
queen sent for him." He wore three blades on his belt, Arya saw; a longsword on his left hip, and on his
right
a dagger and a slimmer blade, too long to be a dirk and too short to be a sword. "King Joffrey's dead,
you know," he added. "Poisoned at his own wedding feast."
Arya edged farther into the room. loffrey's dead. She could almost see him, with his blond curls and his
mean smile and his fat soft lips. lofftey's dead! She knew it ought to make her happy, but somehow she
still felt empty inside. Joffrey was dead, but if Robb was dead too, what did it matter?
"So much for my brave brothers of the Kingsguard." The Hound gave a snort of contempt. "Who killed
him?"
"The Imp, it's thought. Him and his little wife."
"What wife?"
"I forgot, you've been hiding under a rock. The northern girl. Winterfell's daughter. We heard she killed
the king with a spell, and afterward changed into a wolf with big leather wings like a bat, and flew out a
tower window. But she left the dwarf behind and Cersei means to have his head."
That's stupid, Arya thought. Sansa only knows songs, not spells, and she'd never marry the Imp.
The Hound sat on the bench closest the door. His mouth twitched, but only the burned side. "She ought
to dip him in wildfire and cook him. or tickle him till the moon turns black." He raised his wine cup and
drained it straightaway.
He's one of them, Arya thought when she saw that. She bit her lip so hard she tasted blood. He's just
like they are. I should kill him when he sleeps.
"So Gregor took Harrenhal?" Sandor said.


"Didn't require much taking," said Polliver. "The sellswords fled as soon as they knew we were coming,
all but a few. One of the cooks opened a postern gate for us, to get back at Hoat for cutting off his foot."
He chuckled. "We kept him to cook for us, a couple wenches to warm our beds, and put all the rest to
the sword."
"All the rest?" Arya blurted out.
"Well, Ser kept Hoat to pass the time."
Sandor said, "The Blackfish is still in Riverrun?"
"Not for long," said Polliver. "He's under siege. Old Frey's going to hang Edmure Tully unless he yields
the castle. The only real fighting's around Raventree. Blackwoods and Brackens. The Brackens are ours
now."
The Hound poured a cup of wine for Arya and another for himself, and drank it down while staring at
the hearthfire. "The little bird flew away, did she? Well, bloody good for her. She shit on the Imp's head
and flew off."
"They'll find her," said Polliver. "If it takes half the gold in Casterly Rock."
"A pretty girl, I hear," said the Tickler. "Honey sweet." He smacked his lips and smiled.
"And courteous," the Hound agreed. "A proper little lady. Not like her bloody sister."
"They found her too," said Polliver. "The sister. She's for Bolton's bastard, I hear."
Arya sipped her wine so they could not see her mouth. She didn't understand what Polliver was talking
about. Sansa has no other sister. Sandor Clegane laughed aloud.
"What's so bloody funny?" asked Polliver.
The Hound never flicked an eye at Arya. "If I'd wanted you to know, I'd have told you. Are there ships
at Saltpans?"
"Saltpans? How should I know? The traders are back at Maidenpool, I heard. Randyll Tarly took the
castle and locked Mooton in a tower cell. I haven't heard shit about Saltpans."
The Tickler leaned forward. "Would you put to sea without bidding farewell to your brother?" It gave
Arya chills to hear him ask a question. "Ser would sooner you returned to Harrenhal with us, Sandor. I
bet he would. Or King's Landing . . . "
"Bugger that. Bugger him. Bugger you."
The Tickler shrugged, straightened, and reached a hand behind his head to rub the back of his neck.
Everything seemed to happen at once then; Sandor lurched to his feet, Polliver drew his longsword, and
the Tickler's hand whipped around in a blur to send something silver flashing across the common room. if
the Hound had not been moving, the knife might have cored the apple of his throat; instead it only grazed
his ribs, and wound up quivering in the wall near the door. He laughed then, a laugh as cold and hollow


as if it had come from the bottom of a deep well. "I was hoping you'd do something stupid." His sword
slid from its scabbard just in time to knock aside Polliver's first cut.
Arya took a step backward as the long steel song began. The Tickler came off the bench with a
shortsword in one hand and a dagger in the other. Even the chunky brown-haired squire was up,
fumbling for his swordhilt. She snatched her wine cup off the table and threw it at his face. Her aim was
better than it had been at the Twins. The cup hit him right on his big white pimple and he went down hard
on his tail.
Polliver was a grim, methodical fighter, and he pressed Sandor steadily backward, his heavy longsword
moving with brutal precision. The Hound's own cuts were sloppier, his parries rushed, his feet slow and
clumsy. He's drunk, Arya realized with dismay. He drank too much too fast, with no food in his belly.
And the Tickler was sliding around the
wall to get behind him. She grabbed the second wine cup and flung it at him, but he was quicker than the
squire had been and ducked his head in time. The look he gave her then was cold with promise. Is there
gold hidden in the village? she could hear him ask. The stupid squire was clutching the edge of a table and
pulling himself to his knees. Arya could taste the beginnings of panic in the back of her throat. Fear cuts
deeper than swords. Fears cuts deeper ...
Sandor gave a grunt of pain. The burned side of his face ran red from temple to cheek, and the stub of
his ear was gone. That seemed to make him angry. He drove back Polliver with a furious attack,
hammering at him with the old nicked longsword he had swapped for in the hills. The bearded man gave
way, but none of the cuts so much as touched him. And then the Tickler leapt over a bench quick as a
snake, and slashed at the back of the Hound's neck with the edge of his short sword.
They're killing him. Arya had no more cups, but there was something better to throw. She drew the
dagger they'd robbed off the dying archer and tried to fling it at the Tickler the way he'd done. It wasn't
the same as throwing a rock or a crabapple, though. The knife wobbled, and hit him in the arm hilt first.
He never even felt it. He was too intent on Clegane.
As he stabbed, Clegane twisted violently aside, winning himself half a heartbeat's respite. Blood ran
down his face and from the gash in his neck. Both of the Mountain's men came after him hard, Polliver
hacking at his head and shoulders while the Tickler darted in to stab at back and belly. The heavy stone
flagon was still on the table. Arya grabbed it with two hands, but as she lifted it someone grabbed her
arm. The flagon slipped from her fingers and crashed to the floor. Wrenched around, she found herself
nose to nose with the squire. You stupid, you forgot all about him. His big white pimple had burst, she
saw.
"Are you the puppy's puppy?" He had his sword in his right hand and her arm in his left, but her own
hands were free, so she jerked his knife from its sheath and sheathed it again in his belly, twisting. He
wasn't wearing mail or even boiled leather, so it went right in, the same way Needle had when she killed
the stableboy at King's Landing. The squire's eyes got big and he let go of her arm. Arya spun to the
door and wrenched the Tickler's knife from the wall.
Polliver and the Tickler had driven the Hound into a comer behind a bench, and one of them had given
him an ugly red gash on his upper thigh to go with his other wounds. Sandor was leaning against the wall,
bleeding and breathing noisily. He looked as though he could barely stand, let alone fight. "Throw down
the sword, and we'll take you back to Harrenhal," Polliver told him.


"So Gregor can finish me himself?"
The Tickler said, "Maybe he'll give you to me."
"If you want me, come get me." Sandor pushed away from the wall and stood in a half-crouch behind
the bench, his sword held across his body.
"You think we won't?" said Polliver. "You're drunk."
"Might be," said the Hound, "but you're dead." His foot lashed out and caught the bench, driving it hard
into Polliver's shins. Somehow the bearded man kept his feet, but the Hound ducked under his wild slash
and brought his own sword up in a vicious backhand cut. Blood spattered on the ceiling and walls. The
blade caught in the middle of Polliver's face, and when the Hound wrenched it loose half his head came
with it.
The Tickler backed away. Arya could smell his fear. The shortsword in his hand suddenly seemed
almost a toy against the long blade the Hound was holding, and he wasn't armored either. He moved
swiftly, light on his feet, never taking his eyes off Sandor Clegane. it was the easiest thing in the world for
Arya to step up behind him and stab him.
"Is there gold hidden in the village?" she shouted as she drove the blade up through his back. "Is there
silver? Gems?" She stabbed twice more. "Is there food? Where is Lord Beric?" She was on top of him
by then, still stabbing. "Where did he go? How many men were with him? How many knights? How
many bowmen? How many, how many, how many, how many, how many, how many? is there gold in
the village?"
Her hands were red and sticky when Sandor dragged her off him. "Enough," was all he said. He was
bleeding like a butchered pig himself, and dragging one leg when he walked.
"There's one more," Arya reminded him.
The squire had pulled the knife out of his belly and was trying to stop the blood with his hands. When the
Hound yanked him upright, he screamed and started to blubber like a baby. "Mercy," he wept, "please.
Don't kill me. Mother have mercy."
"Do I look like your bloody mother?" The Hound looked like nothing human. "You killed this one too,"
he told Arya. "Pricked him in his bowels, that's the end of him. He'll be a long time dying, though."
The boy didn't seemed to hear him. "I came for the girls," he whimpered. ". . . make me a man, Polly
said ... oh, gods, please, take me to a castle. . . a maester, take me to a maester, my father's got gold ...
it was only for the girls ... mercy, ser."
The Hound gave him a crack across the face that made him scream again. "Don't call me ser." He turned
back to Arya. "This one is yours, she-wolf. You do it."
She knew what he meant. Arya went to Polliver and knelt in his blood long enough to undo his
swordbelt. Hanging beside his dagger was a slimmer blade, too long to be a dirk, too short to be a man's
sword ... but it felt just right in her hand.


"You remember where the heart is?" the Hound asked.
She nodded. The squire rolled his eyes. "Mercy."
Needle slipped between his ribs and gave it to him.
"Good." Sandor's voice was thick with pain. "If these three were whoring here, Gregor must hold the
ford as well as Harrenhal. More of his pets could ride up any moment, and we've killed enough of the
bloody buggers for one day."
"Where will we go?" she asked.
"Saltpans." He put a big hand on her shoulder to keep from falling. "Get some wine, she-wolf. And take
whatever coin they have as well, we'll need it. If there's ships at Saltpans, we can reach the Vale by sea."
His mouth twitched at her, as more blood ran down from where his ear had been. "Maybe Lady Lysa
will marry you to her little Robert. There's a match Id like to see." He started to laugh, then groaned
instead.
When the time came to leave, he needed Arya's help to get back up on Stranger. He had tied a strip of
cloth about his neck and another around his thigh, and taken the squire's cloak off its peg by the door.
The cloak was green, with a green arrow on a white bend, but when the Hound wadded it up and
pressed it to his ear it soon turned red. Arya was afraid he would collapse the moment they set out, but
somehow he stayed in the saddle.
They could not risk meeting whoever held the ruby ford, so instead of following the kingsroad they
angled south by east, through weedy fields, woods, and marshes. It was hours before they reached the
banks of the Trident. The river had returned meekly to its accustomed channel, Arya saw, all its wet
brown rage vanished with the rains. It's tired too, she thought.
Close by the water's edge, they found some willows rising from a jumble of weathered rocks. Together
the rocks and trees formed a sort of natural fort where they could hide from both river and trail. "Here
will do," the Hound said. "Water the horses and gather some deadwood for a fire." When he dismounted,
he had to catch himself on a tree limb to keep from falling.
"Won't the smoke be seen?"
"Anyone wants to find us, all they need to do is follow my blood. Water and wood. But bring me that
wineskin first."
When he got the fire going, Sandor propped up his helm in the flames, emptied half the wineskin into it,
and collapsed back against a jut of moss-covered stone as if he never meant to rise again. He made Arya
wash out the squire's cloak and cut it into strips. Those went into his helm as well. "If I had more wine, Id
drink till I was dead to the world. Maybe I ought to send you back to that bloody inn for another skin or
three. "
"No," Arya said. He wouldn't, would he? If he does, I'll just leave him and ride off.
Sandor laughed at the fear on her face. "A jest, wolf girl. A bloody jest. Find me a stick, about so long


and not too big around. And wash the mud off it. I hate the taste of mud."
He didn't like the first two sticks she brought him. By the time she found one that suited him, the flames
had scorched his dog's snout black all the way to the eyes. Inside the wine was boiling madly. "Get the
cup from my bedroll and dip it half full," he told her. "Be careful. You knock the damn thing over, I will
send you back for more. Take the wine and pour it on my wounds. Think you can do that?" Arya
nodded. "Then what are you waiting for?" he growled.
Her knuckles brushed the steel the first time she filled the cup, burning her so badly she got blisters. Arya
had to bite her lip to keep from screaming. The Hound used the stick for the same purpose, clamping it
between his teeth as she poured. She did the gash in his thigh first, then the shallower cut on the back of
his neck. Sandor coiled his right hand into a fist and beat against the ground when she did his leg. When it
came to his neck, he bit the stick so hard it broke, and she had to find him a new one. She could see the
terror in his eyes. "Turn your head." She trickled the wine down over the raw red flesh where his ear had
been, and fingers of brown blood and red wine crept over his jaw. He did scream then, despite the stick.
Then he passed out from the pain.
Arya figured the rest out by herself. She fished the strips they'd made of the squire's cloak out of the
bottom of the helm and used them to bind the cuts. When she came to his ear, she had to wrap up half
his head to stop the bleeding. By then dusk was settling over the Trident. She let the horses graze, then
hobbled them for the night and made herself as comfortable as she could in a niche between two rocks.
The fire burned a while and died. Arya watched the moon through the branches overhead.
"Ser Gregor the Mountain," she said softly. "Dunsen, Raff the Sweetling, Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, Queen
Cersei." It made her feel queer to leave out Polliver and the Tickler. And Joffrey too. She was glad he
was dead, but she wished she could have been there to see him die, or maybe kill him herself. Polliver
said that Sansa killed him, and the Imp. Could that be true? The Imp was a Lannister, and Sansa ... I
wish I could change into a wolf and grow wings and fly away.
If Sansa was gone too, there were no more Starks but her. Jon was on the Wall a thousand leagues
away, but he was a Snow, and these different aunts and uncles the Hound wanted to sell her to, they
weren't Starks either. They weren't wolves.
Sandor moaned, and she rolled onto her side to look at him. She had left his name out too, she realized.
Why had she done that? She tried to
think of Mycah, but it was hard to remember what he'd looked like. She hadn't known him long. All he
ever did was play at swords with me. "The Hound," she whispered, and, "Valar morghulis." Maybe he'd
be dead by morning ...
But when the pale dawn light came filtering through the trees, it was him who woke her with the toe of
his boot. She had dreamed she was a wolf again, chasing a riderless horse up a hill with a pack behind
her, but his foot brought her back just as they were closing for the kill.
The Hound was still weak, every movement slow and clumsy. He slumped in the saddle, and sweated,
and his ear began to bleed through the bandage. He needed all his strength just to keep from falling off
Stranger. Had the Mountain's men come hunting them, she doubted if he would even be able to lift a
sword. Arya glanced over her shoulder, but there was nothing behind them but a crow flitting from tree to
tree. The only sound was the river.


Long before noon, Sandor Clegane was reeling. There were hours of daylight still remaining when he
called a halt. "I need to rest," was all he said. This time when he dismounted he did fall. Instead of trying
to get back up he crawled weakly under a tree, and leaned up against the trunk. "Bloody hell," he cursed.
"Bloody hell." When he saw Arya staring at him, he said, "I'd skin you alive for a cup of wine, girl."
She brought him water instead. He drank a little of it, complained that it tasted of mud, and slid into a
noisy fevered sleep. When she touched him, his skin was burning up. Arya sniffed at his bandages the
way Maester Luwin had done sometimes when treating her cut or scrape. His face had bled the worst,
but it was the wound on his thigh that smelled funny to her.
She wondered how far this Saltpans was, and whether she could find it by herself. I wouldn't have to kill
him. If I just rode off and left him, he'd die all by himself. He'll die of fever, and lie there beneath that tree
until the end of days. But maybe it would be better if she killed him herself. She had killed the squire at
the inn and he hadn't done anything except grab her arm. The Hound had killed Mycah. Mycah and
more. I bet he's killed a hundred Mycahs. He probably would have killed her too, if not for the ransom.
Needle glinted as she drew it. Polliver had kept it nice and sharp, at least. She turned her body sideways
in a water dancer's stance without even thinking about it. Dead leaves crunched beneath her feet. Quick
as a snake, she thought. Smooth as summer silk.
His eyes opened. "You remember where the heart is?" he asked in a hoarse whisper.
As still as stone she stood. "I ... I was only..."
"Don't lie," he growled. "I hate liars. I hate gutless frauds even worse.
Go on, do it." When Arya did not move, he said, "I killed your butcher's boy. I cut him near in half, and
laughed about it after." He made a queer sound, and it took her a moment to realize he was sobbing.
"And the little bird, your pretty sister, I stood there in my white cloak and let them beat her. I took the
bloody song, she never gave it. I meant to take her too. I should have. I should have fucked her bloody
and ripped her heart out before leaving her for that dwarf." A spasm of pain twisted his face. "Do you
mean to make me beg, bitch? Do it! The gift of mercy ... avenge your little Michael..."
"Mycah." Arya stepped away from him. "You don't deserve the gift of mercy."
The Hound watched her saddle Craven through eyes bright with fever. Not once did he attempt to rise
and stop her. But when she mounted, he said, "A real wolf would finish a wounded animal."
Maybe some real wolves will find you, Arya thought. Maybe they'll smell you when the sun goes down.
Then he would learn what wolves did to dogs. "You shouldn't have hit me with an axe," she said. "You
should have saved my mother." She turned her horse and rode away from him, and never looked back
once.
On a bright morning six days later, she came to a place where the Trident began to widen out and the air
smelled more of salt than trees. She stayed close to the water, passing fields and farms, and a little after
midday a town appeared before her. Saltpans, she hoped. A small castle dominated the town; no more
than a holdfast, really, a single tall square keep with a bailey and a curtain wall. Most of the shops and
inns and alehouses around the harbor had been plundered or burned, though some looked still inhabited.


But the port was there, and eastward spread the Bay of Crabs, its waters shimmering blue and green in
the sun.
And there were ships.
Three, thought Arya, there are three. Two were only river galleys, shallow draft boats made to ply the
waters of the Trident. The third was bigger, a salt sea trader with two banks of oars, a gilded prow, and
three tall masts with furled purple sails. Her hull was painted purple too. Arya rode Craven down to the
docks to get a better look. Strangers are not so strange in a port as they are in little villages, and no one
seemed to care who she was or why she was here.
I need silver. The realization made her bite her lip. They had found a stag and a dozen coppers on
Polliver, eight silvers on the pimply squire she'd killed, and only a couple of pennies in the Tickler's purse.
But the Hound had told her to pull off his boots and slice open his blood-drenched clothes, and she'd
turned up a stag in each toe, and three golden dragons sewn in the lining of his jerkin. Sandor had kept it
all, though. That wasn't fair. It was mine as much as his. If she had given him the gift of
mercy ... she hadn't, though. She couldn't go back, no more than she could beg for help. Begging for
help never gets you any. She would have to sell Craven, and hope she brought enough.
The stable had been bumt, she learned from a boy by the docks, but the woman who'd owned it was
still trading behind the sept. Arya found her easily; a big, robust woman with a good horsey smell to her.
She liked Craven at first look, asked Arya how she'd come by her, and grinned at her answer. "She's a
well-bred horse, that's plain enough, and I don't doubt she belonged to a knight, sweetling," she said.
"But the knight wasn't no dead brother o' yours. I been dealing with the castle there many a year, so I
know what gentleborn folk is like. This mare is well-bred, but you're not." She poked a finger at Arya's
chest. "Found her or stole her, never mind which, that's how it was. Only way a scruffy little thing like you
comes to ride a palfrey."
Arya bit her lip. "Does that mean you won't buy her?"
The woman chuckled. "It means you'll take what I give you, sweetling. Else we go down to the castle,
and maybe you get nothing. Or even hanged, for stealing some good knight's horse."
A half-dozen other Saltpans folks were around, going about their business, so Arya knew she couldn't
kill the woman. Instead she had to bite her lip and let herself be cheated. The purse she got was pitifully
flat, and when she asked for more for the saddle and bridle and blanket, the woman just laughed at her.
She would never have cheated the Hound, she thought during the long walk back to the docks. The
distance seemed to have grown by miles since she'd ridden it.
The purple galley was still there. If the ship had sailed while she was being robbed, that would have been
too much to bear. A cask of mead was being rolled up the plank when she arrived. When she tried to
follow, a sailor up on deck shouted down at her in a tongue she did not know. "I want to see the
captain," Arya told him. He only shouted louder. But the commotion drew the attention of a stout
grey-haired man in a coat of purple wool, and he spoke the Common Tongue. "I am captain here," he
said. "What is your wish? Be quick, child, we have a tide to catch."
"I want to go north, to the Wall. Here, I can pay." She gave him the purse. "The Night's Watch has a


castle on the sea."
"Eastwatch." The captain spilled out the silver onto his palm and frowned. "Is this all you have?"
It is not enough, Arya knew without being told. She could see it on his face. "I wouldn't need a cabin or
anything," she said. "I could sleep down in the hold, or..."
"Take her on as cabin girl," said a passing oarsman, a bolt of wool over one shoulder. "She can sleep
with me."
"Mind your tongue," the captain snapped.
"I could work," said Arya. "I could scrub the decks. I scrubbed a castle steps once. Or I could row. . . "
"No," he said, "you couldn't." He gave her back her coins. "It would make no difference if you could,
child. The north has nothing for us. Ice and war and pirates. We saw a dozen pirate ships making north
as we rounded Crackclaw Point, and I have no wish to meet them again. From here we bend our oars
for home, and I suggest you do the same."
I have no home, Arya thought. I have no pack. And now I don't even have a horse.
The captain was turning away when she said, "What ship is this, my lord? "
He paused long enough to give her a weary smile. "This is the galleas Titan's Daughter, of the Free City
of Braavos."
"Wait," Arya said suddenly. "I have something else." She had stuffed it down inside her smallclothes to
keep it safe, so she had to dig deep to find it, while the oarsmen laughed and the captain lingered with
obvious impatience. "One more silver will make no difference, child," he finally said.
"It's not silver." Her fingers closed on it. "It's iron. Here." She pressed it into his hand, the small black
iron coin that jaqen Hghar had given her, so worn the man whose head it bore had no features. It's
probably worthless, but ...
The captain turned it over and blinked at it, then looked at her again. "This ... how ... ?"
jaqen said to say the words too. Arya crossed her arms against her chest. "Valar morghulis," she said, as
loud as if she'd known what it meant.
"Valar dohaeris," he replied, touching his brow with two fingers. "Of course you shall have a cabin."
Chapter 75
SAMWELL


"He sucks harder than mine." Gilly stroked the babe's head as she held him to her nipple.
"He's hungry," said the blonde woman Val, the one the black brothers called the wildling princess. "He's
lived on goats' milk up to now, and potions from that blind maester."
The boy did not have a name yet, no more than Gilly's did. That was the wildling way. Not even Mance
Rayder's son would get a name till his third year, it would seem, though Sam had heard the brothers
calling him "the little prince" and "bom-in-battle."
He watched the child nurse at Gilly's breast, and then he watched Jon watch. fon is smiling. A sad smile,
still, but definitely a smile of sorts. Sam was glad to see it. It is the first time I've seen him smile since I got
back.
They had walked from the Nightfort to Deep Lake, and from Deep Lake to Queensgate, following a
narrow track from one castle to the next, never out of sight of the Wall. A day and a half from Castle
Black, as they trudged along on callused feet, Gilly heard horses behind them, and turned to see a column
of black riders coming from the west. "My brothers," Sam assured her. "No one uses this road but the
Night's Watch." It had turned out to be Ser Denys Mallister from the Shadow Tower, along with the
wounded Bowen Marsh and the survivors from the fight at the Bridge of Skulls. When Sam saw Dywen,
Giant, and Dolorous Edd Tollett, he broke down and wept.
It was from them that he learned about the battle beneath the Wall. "Stannis landed his knights at
Eastwatch, and Cotter Pyke led him along
the ranger's roads, to take the wildlings unawares," Giant told him. "He smashed them. Mance Rayder
was taken captive, a thousand of his best slain, including Harma Dogshead. The rest scattered like leaves
before a storm, we heard." The gods are good, Sam thought. If he had not gotten lost as he made his
way south from Craster's Keep, he and Gilly might have walked right into the battle ... or into Mance
Rayder's camp, at the very least. That might have been well enough for Gilly and the boy, but not for him.
Sam had heard all the stories about what wildlings did with captured crows. He shuddered.
Nothing that his brothers told him prepared him for what he found at Castle Black, however. The
common hall had burned to the ground and the great wooden stair was a mound of broken ice and
scorched timbers. Donal Noye was dead, along with Rast, Deaf Dick, Red Alyn, and so many more, yet
the castle was more crowded than Sam had ever seen; not with black brothers, but with the king's
soldiers, more than a thousand of them. There was a king in the King's Tower for the first time in living
memory, and banners flew from the Lance, Hardin's Tower, the Grey Keep, the Shieldhall, and other
buildings that had stood empty and abandoned for long years. "The big one, the gold with the black stag,
that's the royal standard of House Baratheon," he told Gilly, who had never seen banners before. "The
fox-and-flowers is House Florent. The turtle is Estermont, the swordfish is Bar Emmon, and the crossed
trumpets are for Wensington."
"They're all bright as flowers." Gilly pointed. "I like those yellow ones, with the fire. Look, and some of
the fighters have the same thing on their blouses."
"A fiery heart. I don't know whose sigil that is."
He found out soon enough. "Queen's men," Pyp told him - after he let out a whoop, and shouted, "Run
and bar the doors, lads, it's Sam the Slayer come back from the grave," while Grenn was hugging Sam so
hard he thought his ribs might break - "but best you don't go asking where the queen is. Stannis left her at
Eastwatch, with their daughter and his fleet. He brought no woman but the red one."


"The red one?" said Sam uncertainly.
"Melisandre of Asshai," said Grenn. "The king's sorceress. They say she burned a man alive at
Dragonstone so Stannis would have favorable winds for his voyage north. She rode beside him in the
battle too, and gave him his magic sword. Lightbringer, they call it. Wait till you see it. It glows like it had
a piece of sun inside it." He looked at Sam again and grinned a big helpless stupid grin. "I still can't
believe you're here."
Jon Snow had smiled to see him too, but it was a tired smile, like the one he wore now. "You made it
back after all," he said. "And brought Gilly out as well. You've done well, Sam."
Jon had done more than well himself, to hear Grenn tell it. Yet even capturing the Horn of Winter and a
wildling prince had not been enough for Ser Alliser Thorne and his friends, who still named him turncloak.
Though Maester Aemon said his wound was healing well, Jon bore other scars, deeper than the ones
around his eye. He grieves for his wildling girl, and for his brothers.
"It's strange," he said to Sam. "Craster had no love for Mance, nor Mance for Craster, but now
Craster's daughter is feeding Mance's son."
"I have the milk," Gilly said, her voice soft and shy. "Mine takes only a little. He's not so greedy as this
one."
The wildling woman Val turned to face them. "I've heard the queen's men saying that the red woman
means to give Mance to the fire, as soon as he is strong enough." Jon gave her a weary look. "Mance is a
deserter from the Night's Watch. The penalty for that is death. if the Watch had taken him, he would
have been hanged by now, but he's the king's captive, and no one knows the king's mind but the red
woman."
"I want to see him," Val said. "I want to show him his son. He deserves that much, before you kill him."
Sam tried to explain. "No one is permitted to see him but Maester Aemon, my lady."
"If it were in my power, Mance could hold his son." Jon's smile was gone. "I'm sorry, Val." He turned
away. "Sam and I have duties to return to. Well, Sam does, anyway. We'll ask about your seeing Mance.
That's all I can promise."
Sam lingered long enough to give Gilly's hand a squeeze and promise to return again after supper. Then
he hurried after. There were guards outside the door, queen's men with spears. Jon was halfway down
the steps, but he waited when he heard Sam puffing after him. "You're more than fond of Gilly, aren't
you?"
Sam reddened. "Gilly's good. She's good and kind." He was glad that his long nightmare was done, glad
to be back with his brothers at Castle Black ... but some nights, alone in his cell, he thought of how warm
Gilly had been when they'd curled up beneath the furs with the babe between them. "She ... she made me
braver, Jon. Not brave, but ... braver."
"You know you cannot keep her," Jon said gently, "no more than I could stay with Ygritte. You said the
words, Sam, the same as I did. The same as all of us."
"I know. Gilly said she'd be a wife to me, but ... I told her about the words, and what they meant. I don't


know if that made her sad or glad, but I told her." He swallowed nervously and said, "Jon, could there be
honor in a lie, if it were told for a ... a good purpose?"
"It would depend on the lie and the purpose, I suppose." Jon looked at Sam. "I wouldn't advise it.
You're not made to lie, Sam. You blush and squeak and stammer."
"I do," said Sam, "but I could lie in a letter. I'm better with a quill in hand. I had a ... a thought. When
things are more settled here, I thought maybe the best thing for Gilly ... I thought I might send her to Horn
Hill. To my mother and sisters and my ... my f-f-father. If Gilly were to say the babe was m-mine..." He
was blushing again. "My mother would want him, I know. She would find some place for Gilly, some
kind of service, it wouldn't be as hard as serving Craster. And Lord R-Randyll, he ... he would never say
so, but he might be pleased to believe I got a bastard on some wildling girl. At least it would prove I was
man enough to lie with a woman and father a child. He told me once that I was sure to die a maiden, that
no woman would ever ... you know ... Jon, if I did this, wrote this lie ... would that be a good thing? The
life the boy would have . . . "
"Growing up a bastard in his grandfather's castle?" Jon shrugged. "That depends in great part on your
father, and what sort of boy this is. If he takes after you. . . "
"He won't. Craster's his real father. You saw him, he was hard as an old tree stump, and Gilly is stronger
than she looks."
"If the boy shows any skill with sword or lance, he should have a place with your father's household
guard at the least," Jon said. "It's not unknown for bastards to be trained as squires and raised to
knighthood. But you'd best be sure Gilly can play this game convincingly. From what you've told me of
Lord Randyll, I doubt he would take kindly to being deceived."
More guards were posted on the steps outside the tower. These were king's men, though; Sam had
quickly learned the difference. The king's men were as earthy and impious as any other soldiers, but the
queen's men were fervid in their devotion to Melisandre of Asshai and her Lord of Light. "Are you going
to the practice yard again?" Sam asked as they crossed the yard. "Is it wise to train so hard before your
leg's done healing?"
Jon shrugged. "What else is there for me to do? Marsh has removed me from duty, for fear that I'm still
a turncloak."
"It's only a few who believe that," Sam assured him. "Ser Alliser and his friends. Most of the brothers
know better. King Stannis knows as well, I'll wager. You brought him the Horn of Winter and captured
Mance Rayder's son."
"All I did was protect Val and the babe against looters when the wildlings fled, and keep them there until
the rangers found us. I never captured anyone. King Stannis keeps his men well in hand, that's plain. He
lets
them plunder some, but I've only heard of three wildling women being raped, and the men who did it
have all been gelded. I suppose I should have been killing the free folk as they ran. Ser Alliser has been
putting it about that the only time I bared my sword was to defend our foes. I failed to kill Mance Rayder
because I was in league with him, he says."


"That's only Ser Alliser," said Sam. "Everyone knows the sort of man he is." With his noble birth, his
knighthood, and his long years in the Watch, Ser Alliser Thorne might have been a strong challenger for
the Lord Commander's title, but almost all the men he'd trained during his years as master-at-arms
despised him. His name had been offered, of course, but after running a weak sixth on the first day and
actually losing votes on the second, Thorne had withdrawn to support Lord Janos Slynt.
"What everyone knows is that Ser Alliser is a knight from a noble line, and trueborn, while I'm the
bastard who killed Qhorin Halfhand and bedded with a spearwife. The warg, I've heard them call me.
How can I be a warg without a wolf, I ask you?" His mouth twisted. "I don't even dream of Ghost
anymore. All my dreams are of the crypts, of the stone kings on their thrones. Sometimes I hear Robb's
voice, and my father's, as if they were at a feast. But there's a wall between us, and I know that no place
has been set for me."
The living have no place at the feasts of the dead. It tore the heart from Sam to hold his silence then.
Bran's not dead, Ion, he wanted to stay. He's with friends, and they're going north on a giant elk to find a
three-eyed crow in the depths of the haunted forest. it sounded so mad that there were times Sam Tarly
thought he must have dreamt it all, conjured it whole from fever and fear and hunger ... but he would have
blurted it out anyway, if he had not given his word.
Three times he had sworn to keep the secret; once to Bran himself, once to that strange boy Jojen Reed,
and last of all to Coldhands. "The world believes the boy is dead," his rescuer had said as they parted.
"Let his bones lie undisturbed. We want no seekers coming after us. Swear it, Samwell of the Night's
Watch. Swear it for the life you owe me."
Miserable, Sam shifted his weight and said, "Lord Janos will never be chosen Lord Commander." It was
the best comfort he had to offer Jon, the only comfort. "That won't happen."
"Sam, you're a sweet fool. Open your eyes. It's been happening for days." Jon pushed his hair back out
of his eyes and said, "I may know nothing, but I know that. Now pray excuse me, I need to hit someone
very hard with a sword."
There was naught that Sam could do but watch him stride off toward the armory and the practice yard.
That was where Jon Snow spent most of his waking hours. With Ser Endrew dead and Ser Alliser
disinterested,
Castle Black had no master-at-arms, so Jon had taken it on himself to work with some of the rawer
recruits; Satin, Horse, Hop-Robin with his clubfoot, Arron and Emrick. And when they had duties, he
would train alone for hours with sword and shield and spear, or match himself against anyone who cared
to take him on.
Sam, you're a sweet fool, he could hear Jon saying, all the way back to the maester's keep. Open your
eyes. It's been happening for days. Could he be right? A man needed the votes of two-thirds of the
Sworn Brothers to become the Lord Commander of the Night's Watch, and after nine days and nine
votes no one was even close to that. Lord Janos had been gaining, true, creeping up past first Bowen
Marsh and then Othell Yarwyck, but he was still well behind Ser Denys Mallister of the Shadow Tower
and Cotter Pyke of Eastwatch-by-the-Sea. One of them will be the new Lord Commander, surely, Sam
told himself.
Stannis had posted guards outside the maester's door too. Within, the rooms were hot and crowded
with the wounded from the battle; black brothers, king's men, and queen's men, all three. Clydas was
shuffling amongst them with flagons of goats' milk and dreamwine, but Maester Aemon had not yet


returned from his morning call on Mance Rayder. Sam hung his cloak upon a peg and went to lend a
hand. But even as he fetched and poured and changed dressings, Jon's words nagged at him. Sam,
you're a sweet fool. Open your eyes. It's been happening for days.
It was a good hour before he could excuse himself to feed the ravens. On the way up to the rookery, he
stopped to check the tally he had made of last night's count. At the start of the choosing, more than thirty
names had been offered, but most had withdrawn once it became clear they could not win. Seven
remained as of last night. Ser Denys Mallister had collected two hundred and thirteen tokens, Cotter
Pyke one hundred and eighty-seven, Lord Slynt seventy-four, Othell Yarwyck sixty, Bowen Marsh
forty-nine, Three-Finger Hobb five, and Dolorous Edd Tollett one. PYP and his stupid japes. Sam
shuffled through the earlier counts. Ser Denys, Cotter Pyke, and Bowen Marsh had all been falling since
the third day, Othell Yarwyck since the sixth. Only Lord Janos Slynt was climbing, day after day after
day.
He could hear the birds quorking in the rookery, so he put the papers away and climbed the steps to
feed them. Three more ravens had come in, he saw with pleasure. "Snow," they cried at him. "Snow,
snow, snow" He had taught them that. Even with the newcomers, the ravenry seemed dismally empty.
Few of the birds that Aemon had sent off had returned as yet. One reached Stannis, though. One found
Dragonstone, and a king who still cared. A thousand leagues south, Sam knew, his father had joined
House Tarly to the cause of the boy on the Iron Throne, but neither King Joffrey nor little King Tornmen
had bestirred himself when the Watch cried out for help. What good is a king who will not defend his
realm? he thought angrily, remembering the night on the Fist of the First Men and the terrible trek to
Craster's Keep through darkness, fear, and falling snow. The queen's men made him uneasy, it was true,
but at least they had come.
That night at supper Sam looked for Jon Snow, but did not see him anywhere in the cavernous stone
vault where the brothers now took their meals. He finally took a place on the bench near his other
friends. Pyp was telling Dolorous Edd about the contest they'd had to see which of the straw soldiers
could collect the most wildling arrows. "You were leading most of the way, but Watt of Long Lake got
three in the last day and passed you."
"I never win anything," Dolorous Edd complained. "The gods always smiled on Watt, though. When the
wildlings knocked him off the Bridge of Skulls, somehow he landed in a nice deep pool of water. How
lucky was that, missing all those rocks?"
"Was it a long fall?" Grenn wanted to know. "Did landing in the pool of water save his life?"
"No," said Dolorous Edd. "He was dead already, from that axe in his head. Still, it was pretty lucky,
missing the rocks."
Three-Finger Hobb had promised the brothers roast haunch of mammoth that night, maybe in hopes of
cadging a few more votes. If that was his notion, he should have found a younger mammoth, Sam
thought, as he pulled a string of gristle out from between his teeth. Sighing, he pushed the food away.
There would be another vote shortly, and the tensions in the air were thicker than the smoke. Cotter
Pyke sat by the fire, surrounded by rangers from Eastwatch. Ser Denys Mallister was near the door with
a smaller group of Shadow Tower men. fanos Slynt has the best place, Sam realized, halfway between
the flames and the drafts. He was alarmed to see Bowen Marsh beside him, wan-faced and haggard, his
head still wrapped in linen, but listening to all that Lord Janos had to say. When he pointed that out to his
friends, Pyp said, "And look down there, that's Ser Alliser whispering with Othell Yarwyck."


After the meal Maester Aernon rose to ask if any of the brothers wished to speak before they cast their
tokens. Dolorous Edd got up, stone-faced and glum as ever. "I just want to say to whoever is voting for
me that I would certainly make an awful Lord Commander. But so would all these others." He was
followed by Bowen Marsh, who stood with one hand on Lord Slynt's shoulder. "Brothers and friends, I
am asking that my name be withdrawn from this choosing. My wound still troubles me, and the task is
too large for me, I fear ... but not for Lord Janos here, who
commanded the gold cloaks of King's Landing for many years. Let us all give him our support."
Sam heard angry mutters from Cotter Pyke's end of the room, and Ser Denys looked at one of his
companions and shook his head. It is too late, the damage is done. He wondered where Jon was, and
why he had stayed away.
Most of the brothers were unlettered, so by tradition the choosing was done by dropping tokens into a
big potbellied iron kettle that Three-Finger Hobb and Owen the Oaf had dragged over from the kitchens.
The barrels of tokens were off in a comer behind a heavy drape, so the voters could make their choice
unseen. You were allowed to have a friend cast your token if you had duty, so some men took two
tokens, three, or four, and Ser Denys and Cotter Pyke voted for the garrisons they had left behind.
When the hall was finally empty, save for them, Sam and Clydas upended the kettle in front of Maester
Aemon. A cascade of seashells, stones, and copper pennies covered the table. Aemon's wrinkled hands
sorted with surprising speed, moving the shells here, the stones there, the pennies to one side, the
occasional arrowhead, nail, and acom off to themselves. Sam and Clydas counted the piles, each of them
keeping his own tally.
Tonight it was Sam's turn to give his results first. "Two hundred and three for Ser Denys Mallister," he
said. "One hundred and sixty-nine for Cotter Pyke. One hundred and thirty-seven for Lord Janos Slynt,
seventy-two for Othell Yarwyck, five for Three-Finger Hobb, and two for Dolorous Edd."
"I had one hundred and sixty-eight for Pyke," Clydas said. "We are two votes short by my count, and
one by Sam's."
"Sam's count is correct," said Maester Aemon. "Jon Snow did not cast a token. it makes no matter. No
one is close."
Sam was more relieved than disappointed. Even with Bowen Marsh's support, Lord Janos was still only
third. "Who are these five who keep voting for Three-Finger Hobb?" he wondered.
"Brothers who want him out of the kitchens?" said Clydas.
"Ser Denys is down ten votes since yesterday," Sam pointed out. "And Cotter Pyke is down almost
twenty. That's not good."
"Not good for their hopes of becoming Lord Commander, certainly," said Maester Aemon. "Yet it may
be good for the Night's Watch, in the end. That is not for us to say. Ten days is not unduly long. There
was once a choosing that lasted near two years, some seven hundred votes. The brothers will come to a
decision in their own time."
Yes, Sam thought, but what decision?
Later, over cups of watered wine in the privacy of Pyp's cell, Sam's tongue loosened and he found


himself thinking aloud. "Cotter Pyke and
Ser Denys Mallister have been losing ground, but between them they still have almost two-thirds," he
told Pyp and Grenn. "Either one would be fine as Lord Commander. Someone needs to convince one of
them to withdraw and support the other."
"Someone?" said Grenn, doubtfully. "What someone?"
"Grenn is so dumb he thinks someone might be him," said Pyp. "Maybe when someone is done with
Pyke and Mallister, he should convince King Stannis to marry Queen Cersei too."
"King Stannis is married," Grenn objected.
"What am I going to do with him, Sam?" sighed Pyp.
"Cotter Pyke and Ser Denys don't like each other much," Grenn argued stubbornly. "They fight about
everything."
"Yes, but only because they have different ideas about what's best for the Watch," said Sam. "If we
explained -"
"We?" said Pyp. "How did someone change to we? I'm the mummer's monkey, remember? And Grenn
is, well, Grenn. " He smiled at Sam, and wiggled his ears. "You, now ... you're a lord's son, and the
maester's steward. .."
"And Sam the Slayer," said Grenn. "You slew an Other."
"It was the dragonglass that killed it," Sam told him for the hundredth time.
"A lord's son, the maester's steward, and Sam the Slayer," Pyp mused. "You could talk to them, might
be..."
"I could," said Sam, sounding as gloomy as Dolorous Edd, "if I wasn't too craven to face them."
Chapter 76
JON
ion prowled around Satin in a slow circle, sword in hand, forcing him to turn. "Get your shield up," he
said.
"It's too heavy," the Oldtown boy complained. "It's as heavy as it needs to be to stop a sword," Jon
said. "Now get it up." He stepped forward, slashing. Satin jerked the shield up in time to catch the sword
on its rim, and swung his own blade at Jon's ribs. "Good," Jon said, when he felt the impact on his own
shield. "That was good. But you need to put your body into it. Get your weight behind the steel and you'll
do more damage than with arm strength alone. Come, try it again, drive at me, but keep the shield up or
I'll ring your head like a bell..."


Instead Satin took a step backward and raised his visor. "Jon," he said, in an anxious voice.
When he turned, she was standing behind him, with half a dozen queen's men around her. Small wonder
the yard grew so quiet. He had glimpsed Melisandre at her nightfires, and coming and going about the
castle, but never so close. She's beautiful, he thought ... but there was something more than a little
unsettling about red eyes. "my lady."
"The king would speak with you, Jon Snow."
Jon thrust the practice sword into the earth. "Might I be allowed to change? I am in no fit state to stand
before a king."
"We shall await you atop the Wall," said Melisandre. We, Jon heard, not he. It's as they say. This is his
true queen, not the one he left at Eastwatch.
He hung his mail and plate inside the armory, returned to his own cell, discarded his sweat-stained
clothes, and donned a fresh set of blacks. It would be cold and windy in the cage, he knew, and colder
and windier still on top of the ice, so he chose a heavy hooded cloak. Last of all he collected Longclaw,
and slung the bastard sword across his back.
Melisandre was waiting for him at the base of the Wall. She had sent her queen's men away. "What does
His Grace want of me?" Jon asked her as they entered the cage.
"All you have to give, Jon Snow. He is a king."
He shut the door and pulled the bell cord. The winch began to turn. They rose. The day was bright and
the Wall was weeping, long fingers of water trickling down its face and glinting in the sun. In the close
confines of the iron cage, he was acutely aware of the red woman's presence. She even smells red. The
scent reminded him of Mikken's forge, of the way iron smelled when red-hot; the scent was smoke and
blood. Kissed by fire, he thought, remembering Ygritte. The wind got in amongst Melisandre's long red
robes and sent them flapping against Jon's legs as he stood beside her. "You are not cold, my lady?" he
asked her.
She laughed. "Never." The ruby at her throat seemed to pulse, in time with the beating of her heart. "The
Lord's fire lives within me, Jon Snow. Feel." She put her hand on his cheek, and held it there while he felt
how warm she was. "That is how life should feel," she told him. "Only death is cold."
They found Stannis Baratheon standing alone at the edge of the Wall, brooding over the field where he
had won his battle, and the great green forest beyond. He was dressed in the same black breeches, tunic,
and boots that a brother of the Night's Watch might wear. Only his cloak set him apart; a heavy golden
cloak trimmed in black fur, and pinned with a brooch in the shape of a flaming heart. "I have brought you
the Bastard of Winterfell, Your Grace," said Melisandre.
Stannis turned to study him. Beneath his heavy brow were eyes like bottomless blue pools. His hollow
cheeks and strong jaw were covered with a short-cropped blue-black beard that did little to conceal the
gauntness of his face, and his teeth were clenched. His neck and shoulders were clenched as well, and his
right hand. Jon found himself remembering something Donal Noye once said about the Baratheon
brothers. Robert was the true steel. Stannis is pure iron, black and hard and strong, but brittle, the way
iron gets. He'll break before he bends. Uneasily, he knelt, wondering why this brittle king had need of
him.


"Rise. I have heard much and more of you, Lord Snow."
"I am no lord, sire." Jon rose. "I know what you have heard. That I am a tumcloak, and craven. That I
slew my brother Qhorin Halfhand so the wildlings would spare my life. That I rode with Mance Rayder,
and took a wildling wife."
"Aye. All that, and more. You are a warg too, they say, a skinchanger who walks at night as a wolf."
King Stannis had a hard smile. "How much of it is true?"
"I had a direwolf, Ghost. I left him when I climbed the Wall near Greyguard, and have not seen him
since. Qhorin Halfhand commanded me to join the wildlings. He knew they would make me kill him to
prove myself, and told me to do whatever they asked of me. The woman was named Ygritte. I broke my
vows with her, but I swear to you on my father's name that I never turned my cloak."
"I believe you," the king said.
That startled him. "Why?"
Stannis snorted. "I know Janos Slynt. And I knew Ned Stark as well. Your father was no friend of mine,
but only a fool would doubt his honor or his honesty. You have his look." A big man, Stannis Baratheon
towered over Jon, but he was so gaunt that he looked ten years older than he was. "I know more than
you might think, Jon Snow. I know it was you who found the dragonglass dagger that Randyll Tarly's son
used to slay the Other."
"Ghost found it. The blade was wrapped in a ranger's cloak and buried beneath the Fist of the First
Men. There were other blades as well ... spearheads, arrowheads, all dragonglass."
"I know you held the gate here," King Stannis said. "If not, I would have come too late."
"Donal Noye held the gate. He died below in the tunnel, fighting the king of the giants."
Stannis grimaced. "Noye made my first sword for me, and Robert's warharnmer as well. Had the god
seen fit to spare him, he would have made a better Lord Commander for your order than any of these
fools who are squabbling over it now."
"Cotter Pyke and Ser Denys Mallister are no fools, sire," Jon said. "They're good men, and capable.
Othell Yarwyck as well, in his own way. Lord Mormont trusted each of them."
"Your Lord Mormont trusted too easily. Else he would not have died as he did. But we were speaking
of you. I have not forgotten that it was you who brought us this magic horn, and captured Mance
Rayder's wife and son."
"Dalla died." Jon was saddened by that still. "Val is her sister. She and the babe did not require much
capturing, Your Grace. You had put the wildlings; to flight, and the skinchanger Mance had left to guard
his queen went mad when the eagle burned." Jon looked at Melisandre. "Some say that was your doing."
She smiled, her long copper hair tumbling across her face. "The Lord of Light has fiery talons, Jon
Snow."
Jon nodded, and turned back to the king. "Your Grace, you spoke of Val. She has asked to see Mance


Rayder, to bring his son to him. it would be a ... a kindness."
"The man is a deserter from your order. Your brothers are all insisting on his death. Why should I do him
a kindness?"
Jon had no answer for that. "If not for him, for Val. For her sister's sake, the child's mother."
"You are fond of this Val?"
"I scarcely know her."
"They tell me she is comely."
"Very," Jon admitted,
"Beauty can be treacherous. My brother learned that lesson from Cersei Larmister. She murdered him,
do not doubt it. Your father and Jon Arryn as well." He scowled. "You rode with these wildlings. Is there
any honor in them, do you think?"
"Yes," Jon said, "but their own sort of honor, sire."
"In Mance Rayder?"
"Yes. I think so."
"In the Lord of Bones?"
Jon hesitated. "Rattleshirt, we called him. Treacherous and bloodthirsty. If there's honor in him, he hides
it down beneath his suit of bones."
"And this other man, this Tormund of the many names who eluded us after the battle? Answer me truly."
"Tormund Giantsbane seemed to me the sort of man who would make a good friend and a bad enemy,
Your Grace."
Stannis gave a curt nod. "Your father was a man of honor. He was no friend to me, but I saw his worth.
Your brother was a rebel and a traitor who meant to steal half my kingdom, but no man can question his
courage. What of you?"
Does he want me to say I love him? Jon's voice was stiff and formal as he said, "I am a man of the
Night's Watch."
"Words. Words are wind. Why do you think I abandoned Dragonstone and sailed to the Wall, Lord
Snow?"
"I am no lord, sire. You came because we sent for you, I hope. Though I could not say why you took so
long about it,"
Surprisingly, Stannis smiled at that. "You're bold enough to be a Stark. Yes, I should have come sooner.
If not for my Hand, I might not have come at all. Lord Seaworth is a man of humble birth, but he
reminded me of my duty, when all I could think of was my rights. I had the cart before the horse, Davos


said. I was trying to win the throne to save the kingdom, when I should have been trying to save the
kingdom to win the throne." Stannis pointed north. "There is where I'll find the foe that I was bom to
fight."
"His name may not be spoken," Melisandre added softly. "He is the God of Night and Terror, Jon
Snow, and these shapes in the snow are his creatures."
"They tell me that you slew one of these walking corpses to save Lord Mormont's life," Stannis said. "it
may be that this is your war as well, Lord Snow. If you will give me your help."
"My sword is pledged to the Night's Watch, Your Grace," Jon Snow answered carefully.
That did not please the king. Stannis ground his teeth and said, "I need more than a sword from you."
Jon was lost. "My lord?"
"I need the north."
The north. "I ... my brother Robb was King in the North . . .
"Your brother was the rightful Lord of Winterfell. if he had stayed home and done his duty, instead of
crowning himself and riding off to conquer the riverlands, he might be alive today. Be that as it may. You
are not Robb, no more than I am Robert."
The harsh words had blown away whatever sympathy Jon might have had for Stannis. "I loved my
brother," he said.
"And I mine. Yet they were what they were, and so are we. I am the only true king in Westeros, north
or south. And you are Ned Stark's bastard." Stannis studied him with those dark blue eyes. "Tywin
Lannister has named Roose Bolton his Warden of the North, to reward him for betraying your brother.
The ironmen are fighting amongst themselves since Balon Greyjoy's death, yet they still hold Moat Cailin,
Deepwood Motte, Torrhen's Square, and most of the Stony Shore. Your father's lands are bleeding, and
I have neither the strength nor the time to stanch the wounds. What is needed is a Lord of Winterfell. A
loyal Lord of Winterfell."
He is looking at me, Jon thought, stunned. "Winterfell is no more. Theon Greyjoy put it to the torch."
"Granite does not bum easily," Stannis said. "The castle can be rebuilt, in time. It's not the walls that
make a lord, it's the man, Your northmen do not know me, have no reason to love me, yet I will need
their strength in the battles yet to come. I need a son of Eddard Stark to win them to my banner."
He would make me Lord of Winterfell. The wind was gusting, and Jon felt so light-headed he was half
afraid it would blow him off the Wall. "Your Grace," he said, "you forget. I am a Snow, not a Stark."
"It's you who are forgetting," King Stannis replied.
Melisandre put a warm hand on Jon's arm. "A king can remove the taint of bastardy with a stroke, Lord
Snow."


Lord Snow. Ser Alliser Thorne had named him that, to mock his
bastard birth. Many of his brothers had taken to using it as well, some with affection, others to wound.
But suddenly it had a different sound to it in Jon's ears. It sounded ... real. "Yes," he said, hesitantly,
"kings have legitimized bastards before, but ... I am still a brother of the Night's Watch. I knelt before a
heart tree and swore to hold no lands and father no children."
"Jon." Melisandre was so close he could feel the warmth of her breath. "R'hllor is the only true god. A
vow sworn to a tree has no more power than one sworn to your shoes. Open your heart and let the light
of the Lord come in. Bum these weirwoods, and accept Winterfell as a gift of the Lord of Light."
When Jon had been very young, too young to understand what it meant to be a bastard, he used to
dream that one day Winterfell. might be his. Later, when he was older, he had been ashamed of those
dreams. Winterfell. would go to Robb and then his sons, or to Bran or Rickon should Robb die childless.
And after them came Sansa and Arya. Even to dream otherwise seemed disloyal, as if he were betraying
them in his heart, wishing for their deaths. I never wanted this, he thought as he stood before the
blue-eyed king and the red woman. I loved Robb, loved an of them ... I never wanted any harm to come
to any of them, but it did. And now there's only me. All he had to do was say the word, and he would be
Jon Stark, and nevermore a Snow. All he had to do was pledge this king his fealty, and Winterfell was
his. All he had to do ...
... was forswear his vows again.
And this time it would not be a ruse. To claim his father's castle, he must turn against his father's gods.
King Stannis gazed off north again, his gold cloak streaming from his shoulders. "It may be that I am
mistaken in you, Jon Snow. We both know the things that are said of bastards. You may lack your
father's honor, or your brother's skill in arms. But you are the weapon the Lord has given me. I have
found you here, as you found the cache of dragonglass beneath the Fist, and I mean to make use of you.
Even Azor Ahai did not win his war alone. I killed a thousand wildlings, took another thousand captive,
and scattered the rest, but we both know they will return. Melisandre has seen that in her fires. This
Tormund Thunderfist is likely re-forming them even now, and planning some new assault. And the more
we bleed each other, the weaker we shall all be when the real enemy falls upon us."
Jon had come to that same realization. "As you say, Your Grace." He wondered where this king was
going.
"Whilst your brothers have been struggling to decide who shall lead them, I have been speaking with this
Mance Rayder." He ground his teeth. "A stubborn man, that one, and prideful. He will leave me no
choice but to give him to the flames. But we took other captives as well, other leaders. The one who
calls himself the Lord of Bones, some of their clan chiefs, the new Magnar of Therm. Your brothers will
not like it, no more than your father's lords, but I mean to allow the wildlings through the Wall ... those
who will swear me their fealty, pledge to keep the king's peace and the king's laws, and take the Lord of
Light as their god. Even the giants, if those great knees of theirs can bend. I will settle them on the Gift,
once I have wrested it away from your new Lord Commander. When the cold winds rise, we shall live or
die together. It is time we made alliance against our common foe." He looked at Jon. "Would you agree?
"


"My father dreamed of resettling the Gift," Jon admitted. "He and my uncle Benjen used to talk of it." He
never thought of settling it with wildlings, though ... but he never rode with wildlings, either. He did not
fool himself; the free folk would make for unruly subjects and dangerous neighbors. Yet when he
weighed Ygritte's red hair against the cold blue eyes of the wights, the choice was easy. "I agree."
"Good," King Stannis said, "for the surest way to seal a new alliance is with a marriage. I mean to wed
my Lord of Winterfell to this wildling princess."
Perhaps Jon had ridden with the free folk too long; he could not help but laugh. "Your Grace," he said,
"captive or no, if you think you can just give Val to me, I fear you have a deal to learn about wildling
women. Whoever weds her had best be prepared to climb in her tower window and carry her off at
swordpoint . . . "
"Whoever?" Stannis gave him a measuring look. "Does this mean you will not wed the girl? I warn you,
she is part of the price you must pay, if you want your father's name and your father's castle. This match
is necessary, to help assure the loyalty of our new subjects. Are you refusing me, Jon Snow?"
"No," Jon said, too quickly. It was Winterfell the king was speaking of, and Winterfell was not to be
lightly refused. "I mean ... this has all come very suddenly, Your Grace. Might I beg you for some time to
consider?"
"As you wish. But consider quickly. I am not a patient man, as your black brothers are about to
discover." Stannis put a thin, fleshless hand on Jon's shoulder. "Say nothing of what we've discussed here
today. To anyone. But when you return, you need only bend your knee, lay your sword at my feet, and
pledge yourself to my service, and you shall rise again as Jon Stark, the Lord of Winterfell."
Chapter 77
TYRION
When he heard noises through the thick wooden door of his cell, Tyrion Lannister prepared to die.
Past time, he thought. Come on, come on, make an end to it. He pushed himself to his feet. His legs
were asleep from being folded under him. He bent down and rubbed the knives from them. I will not go
stumbling and waddling to the headsman's block.
He wondered whether they would kill him down here in the dark or drag him through the city so Ser Ilyn
Payne could lop his head off. After his mummer's farce of a trial, his sweet sister and loving father might
prefer to dispose of him quietly, rather than risk a public execution. I could tell the mob a few choice
things, if they let me speak. But would they be that foolish?
As the keys rattled and the door to his cell pushed inward, creaking, Tyrion pressed back against the
dampness of the wall, wishing for a weapon. I can still bite and kick. I'll die with the taste of blood in my
mouth, that's something. He wished he'd been able to think of some rousing last words. "Bugger you all"
was not like to earn him much of a place in the histories.
Torchlight fell across his face. He shielded his eyes with a hand. "Come on, are you frightened of a


dwarf? Do it, you son of a poxy whore." His voice had grown hoarse from disuse.
'Is that any way to speak about our lady mother?" The man moved forward, a torch in his left hand.
"This is even more ghastly than my cell at Riverrun, though not quite so dank."
For a moment Tyrion could not breathe. "You?"
"Well, most of me." Jaime was gaunt, his hair hacked short. "I left a hand at Harrenhal. Bringing the
Brave Companions across the narrow sea was not one of Father's better notions." He lifted his arm, and
Tyrion saw the stump.
A bark of hysterical laughter burst from his lips. "Oh, gods," he said. "Jaime, I am so sorry, but ... gods
be good, look at the two of us. Handless and Noseless the Lannister boys."
"There were days when my hand smelled so bad I wished I was noseless." Jaime lowered the torch, so
the light bathed his brother's face. "An impressive scar."
Tyrion turned away from the glare. "They made me fight a battle without my big brother to protect me."
"I heard tell you almost burned the city down."
"A filthy lie. I only burned the river." Abruptly, Tyrion remembered where he was, and why. "Are you
here to kill me?"
"Now that's ungrateful. Perhaps I should leave you here to rot if you're going to be so discourteous."
"Rotting is not the fate Cersei has in mind for me."
"Well no, if truth be told. You're to be beheaded on the morrow, out on the old tourney grounds."
Tyrion laughed again. "Will there be food? You'll have to help me with my last words, my wits have been
running about like a rat in a root cellar."
"You won't need last words. I'm rescuing you." Jaime's voice was strangely solemn.
"Who said I required rescue?"
"You know, I'd almost forgotten what an annoying little man you are. Now that you've reminded me, I
do believe I'll let Cersei cut your head off after all."
"Oh no you won't." He waddled out of the cell. "Is it day or night up above? I've lost all sense of time."
"Three hours past midnight. The city sleeps." Jaime slid the torch back into its sconce, on the wall
between the cells.
The corridor was so poorly lit that Tyrion almost stumbled on the turnkey, sprawled across the cold
stone floor. He prodded him with a toe. "Is he dead?"
"Asleep. The other three as well. The eunuch dosed their wine with sweetsleep, but not enough to kill
them. Or so he swears. He is waiting back at the stair, dressed up in a septon's robe. You're going down
into the sewers, and from there to the river. A galley is waiting in the bay. Varys has agents in the Free


Cities who will see that you do not lack for funds ... but try not to be conspicuous. Cersei will send men
after you, I have no doubt. You might do well to take another name."
"Another name? Oh, certainly. And when the Faceless Men come to
kill me, I'll say, 'No, you have the wrong man, I'm a different dwarf with a hideous facial scar."' Both
Lannisters laughed at the absurdity of it all. Then Jaime went to one knee and kissed him quickly once on
each cheek, his lips brushing against the puckered ribbon of scar tissue.
"Thank you, Brother," Tyrion said. "For my life."
"It was ... a debt I owed you." Jaime's voice was strange.
"A debt?" He cocked his head. "I do not understand."
"Good. Some doors are best left closed."
"Oh, dear," said Tyrion. "Is there something grim and ugly behind it? Could it be that someone said
something cruel about me once? I'll try not to weep. Tell me."
"Tyrion..."
faime is afraid. "Tell me," Tyrion said again.
His brother looked away. "Tysha," he said softly.
"Tysha?" His stomach tightened. "What of her?"
"She was no whore. I never bought her for you. That was a lie that Father commanded me to tell. Tysha
was ... she was what she seemed to be. A crofter's daughter, chance met on the road."
Tyrion could hear the faint sound of his own breath whistling hollowly through the scar of his nose. Jaime
could not meet his eyes. Tysha. He tried to remember what she had looked like. A girl, she was only a
girl, no older than Sansa. "My wife," he croaked. "She wed me."
"For your gold, Father said. She was lowborn, you were a Lannister of Casterly Rock. All she wanted
was the gold, which made her no different from a whore, so ... so it would not be a lie, not truly, and ...
he said that you required a sharp lesson. That you would learn from it, and thank me later . . . "
"Thank you?" Tyrion's voice was choked. "He gave her to his guards. A barracks full of guards. He
made me ... watch." Aye, and more than watch. I took her too ... my wife ...
"I never knew he would do that. You must believe me."
"Oh, must I" Tyrion snarled. "Why should I believe you about anything, ever? She was my wife!"
"Tyrion -it
He hit him. It was a slap, backhanded, but he put all his strength into it, all his fear, all his rage, all his
pain. Jaime was squatting, unbalanced. The blow sent him tumbling backward to the floor. "I ... I
suppose I earned that."


"Oh, you've earned more than that, Jaime. You and my sweet sister and our loving father, yes, I can't
begin to tell you what you've earned. But you'll have it, that I swear to you. A Lannister always pays his
debts." Tyrion waddled away, almost stumbling over the turnkey again in his haste. Before he had gone a
dozen yards, he bumped up against an irongate that closed the passage. Oh, gods. it was all he could do
not to scream.
Jaime came up behind him. "I have the gaoler's keys."
"Then use them." Tyrion stepped aside.
Jaime unlocked the gate, pushed it open, and stepped through. He looked back over his shoulder. "Are
you coming?"
"Not with you." Tyrion stepped through. "Give me the keys and go. I will find Varys on my own." He
cocked his head and stared up at his brother with his mismatched eyes. "Jaime, can you flght
left-handed?"
"Rather less well than you," Jaime said bitterly.
"Good. Then we will be well matched if we should ever meet again. The cripple and the dwarf."
Jaime handed him the ring of keys. "I gave you the truth. You owe me the same. Did you do it? Did you
kill him?"
The question was another knife, twisting in his guts. "Are you sure you want to know?" asked Tyrion.
"Joffrey would have been a worse king than Aerys ever was. He stole his father's dagger and gave it to a
footpad to slit the throat of Brandon Stark, did you know that?"
"I ... I thought he might have."
"Well, a son takes after his father. Joff would have killed me as well, once he came into his power. For
the crime of being short and ugly, of which I am so conspicuously guilty."
"You have not answered my question."
"You poor stupid blind crippled fool. Must I spell every little thing out for you? Very well. Cersei is a
lying whore, she's been fucking Lancel and Osmund Kettleblack and probably Moon Boy for all I know.
And I am the monster they all say I am. Yes, I killed your vile son." He made himself grin. It must have
been a hideous sight to see, there in the torchlit gloom.
Jaime turned without a word and walked away.
Tyrion watched him go, striding on his long strong legs, and part of him wanted to call out, to tell him that
it wasn't true, to beg for his forgiveness. But then he thought of Tysha, and he held his silence. He listened
to the receding footsteps until he could hear them no longer, then waddled off to look for Varys.
The eunuch was lurking in the dark of a twisting turnpike stair, garbed in a moth-eaten brown robe with
a hood that hid the paleness of his face. "You were so long, I feared that something had gone amiss," he
said when he saw Tyrion.


"Oh, no," Tyrion assured him, in poisonous tones. "What could possibly have gone amiss?" He twisted
his head back to stare up. "I sent for you during my trial."
"I could not come. The queen had me watched, night and day. I dared not help you."
"You're helping me now."
"Am I? Ah." Varys giggled. It seemed strangely out of place in this place of cold stone and echoing
darkness. "Your brother can be most persuasive."
"Varys, you are as cold and slimy as a slug, has anyone ever told you? You did your best to kill me.
Perhaps I ought to return the favor."
The eunuch sighed. "The faithful dog is kicked, and no matter how the spider weaves, he is never loved.
But if you slay me here, I fear for you, my lord. You may never find your way back to daylight." His eyes
glittered in the shifting torchlight, dark and wet. "These tunnels are full of traps for the unwary."
Tyrion snorted. "Unwary? I'm the wariest man who ever lived, you helped see to that." He rubbed at his
nose. "So tell me, wizard, where is my innocent maiden wife?"
"I have found no trace of Lady Sansa in King's Landing sad to say. Nor of Ser Dontos Hollard, who by
rights should have turned up somewhere drunk by now. They were seen together on the serpentine steps
the night she vanished. After that, nothing. There was much confusion that night. My little birds are silent."
Varys gave a gentle tug at the dwarf's sleeve and pulled him into the stair. "My lord, we must away. Your
path is down."
That's no lie, at least. Tyrion waddled along in the eunuch's wake, his heels scraping against the rough
stone as they descended. It was very cold within the stairwell, a damp bone-chilling cold that set him to
shivering at once. "What part of the dungeons are these?" he asked.
"Maegor the Cruel decreed four levels of dungeons for his castle," Varys replied. "On the upper level,
there are large cells where common criminals may be confined together. They have narrow windows set
high in the walls. The second level has the smaller cells where highborn captives are held. They have no
windows, but torches in the halls cast light through the bars. On the third level the cells are smaller and
the doors are wood. The black cells, men call them. That was where you were kept, and Eddard Stark
before you. But there is a level lower still. Once a man is taken down to the fourth level, he never sees
the sun again, nor hears a human voice, nor breathes a breath free of agonizing pain. Maegor had the
cells on the fourth level built for torment." They had reached the bottom of the steps. An unlighted door
opened before them. "This is the fourth level. Give me your hand, my lord. It is safer to walk in darkness
here. There are things you would not wish to see."
Tyrion hung back a moment. Varys had already betrayed him once. Who knew what game the eunuch
was playing? And what better place to murder a man than down in the darkness, in a place that no one
knew existed? His body might never be found.
On the other hand, what choice did he have? To go back up the steps and walk out the main gate? No,
that would not serve.
Jaime would not be afraid, he thought, before he remembered what Jaime had done to him. He took the
eunuch by the hand and let himself be led through the black, following the soft scrape of leather on stone.
Varys walked quickly, from time to time whispering, "Careful, there are three steps ahead," or, "The


tunnel slopes downward here, my lord." I arrived here a King's Hand, riding through the gates at the head
of my own sworn men, Tyrion reflected, and I leave like a rat scuttling through the dark, holding hands
with a spider.
A light appeared ahead of them, too dim to be daylight, and grew as they hurried toward it. After a while
he could see it was an arched doorway, closed off by another iron gate. Varys produced a key. They
stepped through into a small round chamber. Five other doors opened off the room, each barred in iron.
There was an opening in the ceiling as well, and a series of rungs set in the wall below, leading upward.
An ornate brazier stood to one side, fashioned in the shape of a dragon's head. The coals in the beast's
yawning mouth had burnt down to embers, but they still glowed with a sullen orange light. Dim as it was,
the light was welcome after the blackness of the tunnel.
The juncture was otherwise empty, but on the floor was a mosaic of a three-headed dragon wrought in
red and black tiles. Something niggled at Tyrionfor a moment. Then it came to him. This is the place Shae
told me of, when Varys first led her to my bed. "We are below the Tower of the Hand."
"Yes." Frozen hinges screamed in protest as Varys pulled open a longclosed door. Flakes of rust drifted
to the floor. "This will take us out to the river."
Tyrion walked slowly to the ladder, ran his hand across the lowest rung. "This will take me up to my
bedchamber."
"Your lord father's bedchamber now."
He looked up the shaft. "How far must I climb?"
"My lord, you are too weak for such follies, and there is besides no time. We must go."
"I have business above. How far?"
"Two hundred and thirty rungs, but whatever you intend
"Two hundred and thirty rungs, and then?"
"The tunnel to the left, but hear me - "
"How far along to the bedchamber?" Tyrion lifted a foot to the lowest rung of the ladder.
"No more than sixty feet. Keep one hand on the wall as you go. You will feel the doors. The
bedchamber is the third." He sighed. "This is folly, my lord. Your brother has given you your life back.
Would you cast it away, and mine with it?"
"Varys, the only thing I value less than my life just now is yours. Wait for me here." He turned his back
on the eunuch and began to climb, counting silently as he went.
Rung by rung, he ascended into darkness. At first he could see the dim outline of each rung as he
grasped it, and the rough grey texture of the stone behind, but as he climbed the black grew thicker.
Thirteen fourteen fifteen sixteen. By thirty, his arms trembled with the strain of pulling. He paused a
moment to catch his breath and glanced down. A circle of faint light shone far below, half obscured by
his own feet. Tyrion resumed his ascent. Thirty-nine forty forty-one. By fifty, his legs burned. The ladder
was endless, numbing. Sixty-eight sixty-nine seventy. By eighty, his back was a dull agony. Yet still he


climbed. He could not have said why. One thirteen one fourteen one fifteen.
At two hundred and thirty, the shaft was black as pitch, but he could feel the warm air flowing from the
tunnel to his left, like the breath of some great beast. He poked about awkwardly with a foot and edged
off the ladder. The tunnel was even more cramped than the shaft. Any man of normal size would have
had to crawl on hands and knees, but Tyrion was short enough to walk upright. At last, a place made for
dwarfs. His boots scuffed softly against the stone. He walked slowly, counting steps, feeling for gaps in
the walls. Soon he began to hear voices, muffled and indistinct at first, then clearer. He listened more
closely. Two of his father's guardsmen were joking about the Imp's whore, saying how sweet it would be
to fuck her, and how bad she must want a real cock in place of the dwarf's stunted little thing. "Most like
it's got a crook in it," said Lum. That led him into a discussion of how Tyrion would die on the morrow.
"He'll weep like a woman and beg for mercy, you'll see," Lum insisted. Lester figured he'd face the axe
brave as a lion, being a Lannister, and he was willing to bet his new boots on it. "Ah, shit in your boots,"
said Lum, "you know they'd never fit these feet Wmine. Tell you what, if I win you can scour my bloody
mail for a fortnight."
For the space of a few feet, Tyrion could hear every word of their haggling, but when he moved on, the
voices faded quickly. Small wonder Varys did not want me to climb the bloody ladder, Tyrion thought,
smiling in the dark. Little birds indeed.
He came to the third door and fumbled about for a long time before his fingers brushed a small iron hook
set between two stones. When he pulled down on it, there was a soft rumble that sounded loud as an
avalanche in the stillness, and a square of dull orange light opened a foot to his left.
The hearth! He almost laughed. The fireplace was full of hot ash, and a black log with a hot orange heart
burning within. He edged past gingerly, taking quick steps so as not to bum his boots, the warm cinders
crunching
softly under his heels. When he found himself in what had once been his bedchamber, he stood a long
moment, breathing the silence. Had his father heard? Would he reach for his sword, raise the hue and
cry?
"M'lord?" a woman's voice called.
That might have hurt me once, when I still felt pain. The first step was the hardest. When he reached the
bed Tyrion pulled the draperies aside and there she was, turning toward him with a sleepy smile on her
lips. It died when she saw him. She pulled the blankets up to her chin, as if that would protect her.
"Were you expecting someone taller, sweetling?"
Big wet tears filled her eyes. "I never meant those things I said, the queen made me. Please. Your father
frightens me so." She sat up, letting the blanket slide down to her lap. Beneath it she was naked, but for
the chain about her throat. A chain of linked golden hands, each holding the next.
"My lady Shae," Tyrion said softly. "All the time I sat in the black cell waiting to die, I kept remembering
how beautiful you were. in silk or roughspun or nothing at all..."
"M'lord will be back soon. You should go, or ... did you come to take me away?"
"Did you ever like it?" He cupped her cheek, remembering all the times he had done this before. All the
times he'd slid his hands around her waist, squeezed her small firm breasts, stroked her short dark hair,


touched her lips, her cheeks, her ears. All the times he had opened her with a finger to probe her secret
sweetness and make her moan. "Did you ever like my touch?"
"More than anything," she said, "my giant of Lannister."
That was the worst thing you could have said, sweetling.
Tyrion slid a hand under his father's chain, and twisted. The links tightened, digging into her neck. "For
hands of gold are always cold, but a woman's hands are warm," he said. He gave cold hands another
twist as the warm ones beat away his tears.
Afterward he found Lord Tywin's dagger on the bedside table and shoved it through his belt. A
lion-headed mace, a poleaxe, and a crossbow had been hung on the walls. The poleaxe would be clumsy
to wield inside a castle, and the mace was too high to reach, but a large wood-and-iron chest had been
placed against the wall directly under the crossbow. He climbed up, pulled down the bow and a leather
quiver packed with quarrels, jammed a foot into the stirrup, and pushed down until the bowstring
cocked. Then he slipped a bolt into the notch.
Jaime had lectured him more than once on the drawbacks of crossbows. If Lum and Lester emerged
from wherever they were talking, he'd never have time to reload, but at least he'd take one down to hell
with him. Lum, if he had a choice. You'll have to clean your own mail, Lum. You lose.
Waddling to the door, he listened a moment, then eased it open slowly. A lamp burned in a stone niche,
casting wan yellow light over the empty hallway. Only the flame was moving. Tyrion slid out, holding the
crossbow down against his leg.
He found his father where he knew he'd find him, seated in the dimness of the privy tower, bedrobe
hiked up around his hips. At the sound of steps, Lord Tywin raised his eyes.
Tyrion gave him a mocking half bow. "My lord."
"Tyrion." If he was afraid, Tywin Lannister gave no hint of it. "Who released you from your cell?"
"I'd love to tell you, but I swore a holy oath."
"The eunuch," his father decided. "I'll have his head for this. Is that my crossbow? Put it down."
"Will you punish me if I refuse, Father?"
"This escape is folly. You are not to be killed, if that is what you fear. It's still my intent to send you to
the Wall, but I could not do it without Lord Tyrell's consent. Put down the crossbow and we will go
back to my chambers and talk of it."
"We can talk here just as well. Perhaps I don't choose to go to the Wall, Father. It's bloody cold up
there, and I believe I've had enough coldness from you. So just tell me something, and I'll be on my way.
One simple question, you owe me that much."
"I owe you nothing."
"You've given me less than that, all my life, but you'll give me this. What did you do with Tysha?"


"Tysha?"
He does not even remember her name. "The girl I married."
"Oh, yes. Your first whore."
Tyrion took aim at his father's chest. "The next time you say that word, I'll kill you."
"You do not have the courage."
"Shall we find out? It's a short word, and it seems to come so easily to your lips." Tyrion gestured
impatiently with the bow. "Tysha. What did you do with her, after my little lesson?"
"I don't recall."
"Try harder. Did you have her killed?"
His father pursed his lips. "There was no reason for that, she'd learned her place ... and had been well
paid for her day's work, I seem to recall. I suppose the steward sent her on her way. I never thought to
inquire."
"On her way where?"
"Wherever whores go."
Tyrion's finger clenched. The crossbow whanged just as Lord Tywin started to rise. The bolt slammed
into him above the groin and he sat back down with a grunt. The quarrel had sunk deep, right to the
fletching. Blood seeped out around the shaft, dripping down into his pubic hair and over his bare thighs.
"You shot me," he said incredulously, his eyes glassy with shock.
"You always were quick to grasp a situation, my lord," Tyrion said. "That must be why you're the Hand
of the King."
"You ... you are no ... no son of mine."
"Now that's where you're wrong, Father. Why, I believe I'm you writ small. Do me a kindness now, and
die quickly. I have a ship to catch."
For once, his father did what Tyrion asked him. The proof was the sudden stench, as his bowels
loosened in the moment of death. Well, he was in the right place for it, Tyrion thought. But the stink that
filled the privy gave ample evidence that the oft-repeated jape about his father was just another lie.
Lord Tywin Lannister did not, in the end, shit gold.
Chapter 78
SAMWELL


The king was angry. Sam saw that at once.
As the black brothers entered one by one and knelt before him, Stannis shoved away his breakfast of
hardbread, salt beef, and boiled eggs, and eyed them coldly. Beside him, the red woman Melisandre
looked as if she found the scene amusing.
I have no place here, Sam thought anxiously, when her red eyes fell upon him. Someone had to help
Maester Aemon up the steps. Don't look at me, I'm just the maester's steward. The others were
contenders for the Old Bear's command, all but Bowen Marsh, who had withdrawn from the contest but
remained castellan and Lord Steward. Sam did not understand why Melisandre should seem so
interested in him.
King Stannis kept the black brothers on their knees for an extraordinarily long time. "Rise," he said at
last. Sam gave Maester Aemon his shoulder to help him back up.
The sound of Lord Janos Slynt clearing his throat broke the strained silence. "Your Grace, let me say
how pleased we are to be summoned here. When I saw your banners from the Wall, I knew the realm
was saved. 'There comes a man who neer forgets his duty/ I said to good Ser Alliser. 'A strong man, and
a true king.' May I congratulate you on your victory over the savages? The singers will make much of it, I
know - "
"The singers may do as they like," Stannis snapped. "Spare me your fawning, Janos, it will not serve
you." He rose to his feet and frowned at them all. "Lady Melisandre tells me that you have not yet chosen
a Lord Commander. I am displeased. How much longer must this folly last?"
"Sire," said Bowen Marsh in a defensive tone, "no one has achieved two-thirds of the vote yet. It has
only been ten days."
"Nine days too long. I have captives to dispose of, a realm to order, a war to fight. Choices must be
made, decisions that involve the Wall and the Night's Watch. By rights your Lord Commander should
have a voice in those decisions."
"He should, yes," said Janos Slynt. "But it must be said. We brothers are only simple soldiers. Soldiers,
yes! And Your Grace will know that soldiers are most comfortable taking orders. They would benefit
from your royal guidance, it seems to me. For the good of the realm. To help them choose wisely."
The suggestion outraged some of the others. "Do you want the king to wipe our arses for us too?" said
Cotter Pyke angrily. "The choice of a Lord Commander belongs to the Sworn Brothers, and to them
alone," insisted Ser Denys Mallister. "If they choose wisely they won't be choosing me," moaned
Dolorous Edd. Maester Aemon, calm as always, said, "Your Grace, the Night's Watch has been
choosing its own leader since Brandon the Builder raised the Wall. Through Jeor Mormont we have had
nine hundred and ninety-seven Lords Commander in unbroken succession, each chosen by the men he
would lead, a tradition many thousands of years old."
Stannis ground his teeth. "It is not my wish to tamper with your rights and traditions. As to royal
guidance, Janos, if you mean that I ought to tell your brothers to choose you, have the courage to say
so."


That took Lord Janos aback. He smiled uncertainly and began to sweat, but Bowen Marsh beside him
said, "Who better to command the black cloaks than a man who once commanded the gold, sire?"
"Any of you, I would think. Even the cook." The look the king gave Slynt was cold. "Janos was hardly
the first gold cloak ever to take a bribe, I grant you, but he may have been the first commander to fatten
his purse by selling places and promotions. By the end he must have had half the officers in the City
Watch paying him part of their wages. Isn't that so, Janos? "
Slynt's neck was purpling. "Lies, all lies! A strong man makes enemies, Your Grace knows that, they
whisper lies behind your back. Naught was ever proven, not a man came forward..."
"Two men who were prepared to come forward died suddenly on their rounds." Stannis narrowed his
eyes. "Do not trifle with me, my lord. I saw the proof Jon Arryn laid before the small council. If I had
been king you would have lost more than your office, I promise you, but Robert shrugged away your little
lapses. 'They all steal/ I recall him saying. 'Better a thief we know than one we don't, the next man might
be worse.' Lord Petyr's words in my brother's mouth, I'll warrant. Littlefinger had a nose for gold, and
I'm certain he arranged matters so the crown profited as much from your corruption as you did yourself."
Lord Slynt's jowls were quivering, but before he could frame a further protest Maester Aemon said,
"Your Grace, by law a man's past crimes and transgressions are wiped clean when he says his words and
becomes a Sworn Brother of the Night's Watch."
"I am aware of that. If it happens that Lord Janos here is the best the Night's Watch can offer, I shall grit
my teeth and choke him down. It is naught to me which man of you is chosen, so long as you make a
choice. We have a war to fight."
"Your Grace," said Ser Denys Mallister, in tones of wary courtesy. "If you are speaking of the wildlings .
. . "
"I am not. And you know that, ser."
"And you must know that whilst we are thankful for the aid you rendered us against Mance Rayder, we
can offer you no help in your contest for the throne. The Night's Watch takes no part in the wars of the
Seven Kingdoms. For eight thousand years - "
"I know your history, Ser Denys," the king said brusquely. "I give you my word, I shall not ask you to lift
your swords against any of the rebels and usurpers who plague me. I do expect that you will continue to
defend the Wall as you always have."
"We'll defend the Wall to the last man," said Cotter Pyke.
"Probably me," said Dolorous Edd, in a resigned tone.
Stannis crossed his arms. "I shall require a few other things from you as well. Things that you may not be
so quick to give. I want your castles. And I want the Gift."
Those blunt words burst among the black brothers like a pot of wildfire tossed onto a brazier. Marsh,
Mallister, and Pyke all tried to speak at once. King Stannis let them talk. When they were done, he said,
"I have three times the men you do. I can take the lands if I wish, but I would prefer to do this legally,
with your consent."


"The Gift was given to the Night's Watch in perpetuity, Your Grace," Bowen Marsh insisted.
"Which means it cannot be lawfully seized, attainted, or taken from you. But what was given once can be
given again."
"What will you do with the Gift?" demanded Cotter Pyke.
"Make better use of it than you have. As to the castles, Eastwatch, Castle Black, and the Shadow
Tower shall remain yours. Garrison them as you always have, but I must take the others for my garrisons
if we are to hold the Wall."
"You do not have the men," objected Bowen Marsh.
"Some of the abandoned castles are scarce more than ruins," said Othell Yarwyck, the First Builder.
"Ruins can be rebuilt."
"Rebuilt?" Yarwyck said. "But who will do the work?"
"That is my concern. I shall require a list from you, detailing the present state of every castle and what
might be required to restore it. I mean to have them all garrisoned again within the year, and nightfires
burning before their gates."
"Nightfires?" Bowen Marsh gave Melisandre an uncertain look. "We're to light nightfires now?"
"You are." The woman rose in a swirl of scarlet silk, her long copperbright hair tumbling about her
shoulders. "Swords alone cannot hold this darkness back. Only the light of the Lord can do that. Make
no mistake, good sers and valiant brothers, the war we've come to fight is no petty squabble over lands
and honors. Ours is a war for life itself, and should we fail the world dies with us."
The officers did not know how to take that, Sam could see. Bowen Marsh and Othell Yarwyck
exchanged a doubtful look, Janos Slynt was fuming, and Three-Finger Hobb looked as though he would
sooner be back chopping carrots. But all of them seemed surprised to hear Maester Aemon murmur, "It
is the war for the dawn you speak of, my lady. But where is the prince that was promised?"
"He stands before you," Melisandre declared, "though you do not have the eyes to see. Stannis
Baratheon is Azor Ahai come again, the warrior of fire. In him the prophecies are fulfilled. The red comet
blazed across the sky to herald his coming, and he bears Lightbringer, the red sword of heroes."
Her words seemed to make the king desperately uncomfortable, Sam saw. Stannis ground his teeth, and
said, "You called and I came, my lords. Now you must live with me, or die with me. Best get used to
that." He made a brusque gesture. "That's all. Maester, stay a moment. And you, Tarly. The rest of you
may go."
Me? Sam thought, stricken, as his brothers were bowing and making their way out. What does he want
with me?
"You are the one that killed the creature in the snow," King Stannis said, when only the four of them
remained.
"Sam the Slayer." Melisandre smiled.


Sam felt his face turning red. "No, my lady. Your Grace. I mean, I am, yes. I'm Samwell Tarly, yes."
"Your father is an able soldier," King Stannis said. "He defeated my brother once, at Ashford. Mace
Tyrell has been pleased to claim the honors for that victory, but Lord Randyll had decided matters before
Tyrell ever found the battlefield. He slew Lord Cafferen with that great Valyrian sword of his and sent his
head to Aerys." The king rubbed his jaw with a finger. "You are not the sort of son I would expect such a
man to have."
"I ... I am not the sort of son he wanted, sire."
"if you had not taken the black, you would make a useful hostage," Stannis mused.
"He has taken the black, sire," Maester Aemon pointed out.
"I am well aware of that," the king said. "I am aware of more than you know, Aemon Targaryen."
The old man inclined his head. "I am only Aemon, sire. We give up our House names when we forge our
maester's chains."
The king gave that a curt nod, as if to say he knew and did not care. "You slew this creature with an
obsidian dagger, I am told," he said to Sam.
"Y-yes, Your Grace. Jon Snow gave it to me."
"Dragonglass." The red woman's laugh was music. "Frozen fire, in the tongue of old Valyria. Small
wonder it is anathema to these cold children of the other."
"On Dragonstone, where I had my seat, there is much of this obsidian to be seen in the old tunnels
beneath the mountain," the king told Sam. "Chunks of it, boulders, ledges. The great part of it was black,
as I recall, but there was some green as well, some red, even purple. I have sent word to Ser Rolland my
castellan to begin mining it. I will not hold Dragonstone for very much longer, I fear, but perhaps the Lord
of Light shall grant us enough frozen f1re to arm ourselves against these creatures, before the castle falls."
Sam cleared his throat. "S-sire. The dagger ... the dragonglass only shattered when I tried to stab a
wight."
Melisandre smiled. "Necromancy animates these wights, yet they are still only dead flesh. Steel and fire
will serve for them. The ones you call the Others are something more."
"Demons made of snow and ice and cold," said Stannis Baratheon. "The ancient enemy. The only enemy
that matters." He considered Sam again. "I am told that you and this wildling girl passed beneath the
Wall, through some magic gate."
"The B-black Gate," Sam stammered. "Below the Nightfort."
"The Nightfort is the largest and oldest of the castles on the Wall," the king said. "That is where I intend
to make my seat, whilst I fight this war. You will show me this gate."
"I," said Sam, "I w-will, if..." If it is still there. If it will open for a man not of the black. If...


"You will," snapped Stannis. "I shall tell you when."
Maester Aemon smiled. "Your Grace," he said, "before we go, I wonder if you would do us the great
honor of showing us this wondrous blade we have all heard so very much of."
"You want to see Lightbringer? A blind man?"
"Sam shall be my eyes."
The king frowned. "Everyone else has seen the thing, why not a blind man?" His swordbelt and scabbard
hung from a peg near the hearth. He took the belt down and drew the longsword out. Steel scraped
against wood and leather, and radiance filled the solar; shimmering, shifting, a dance of gold and orange
and red light, all the bright colors of fire.
"Tell me, Samwell." Maester Aemon touched his arm.
"It glows," said Sam, in a hushed voice. "As if it were on fire. There are no flames, but the steel is yellow
and red and orange, all flashing and glimmering, like sunshine on water, but prettier. I wish you could see
it, Maester."
"I see it now, Sam. A sword full of sunlight. So lovely to behold." The old man bowed stiffly. "Your
Grace. My lady. This was most kind of you. "
When King Stannis sheathed the shining sword, the room seemed to grow very dark, despite the sunlight
streaming through the window. "Very well, you've seen it. You may return to your duties now. And
remember what I said. Your brothers will chose a Lord Commander tonight, or I shall make them wish
they had."
Maester Aemon was lost in thought as Sam helped him down the narrow turnpike stair. But as they
were crossing the yard, he said, "I felt no heat. Did you, Sam?"
"Heat? From the sword? " He thought back. "The air around it was shimmering, the way it does above a
hot brazier."
"Yet you felt no heat, did you? And the scabbard that held this sword, it is wood and leather, yes? I
heard the sound when His Grace drew out the blade. Was the leather scorched, Sam? Did the wood
seem burnt or blackened? "
"No," Sam admitted. "Not that I could see."
Maester Aemon nodded. Back in his own chambers, he asked Sam to set a fire and help him to his chair
beside the hearth. "it is hard to be so old," he sighed as he settled onto the cushion. "And harder still to be
so blind. I miss the sun. And books. I miss books most of all." Aemon waved a hand. "I shall have no
more need of you till the choosing."
"The choosing ... Maester, isn't there something you could do? What the king said of Lord Janos . . . "
"I recall," Maester Aemon said, "but Sam, I am a maester, chained and sworn. My duty is to counsel the
Lord Commander, whoever he might be. It would not be proper for me to be seen to favor one
contender over another."


"I'm not a maester," said Sam. "Could I do something?"
Aemon turned his blind white eyes toward Sam's face, and smiled softy. "Why, I don't know, Samwell.
Could you?"
I could, Sam thought. I have to. He had to do it right away, too. If he
hesitated he was certain to lose his courage. I am a man of the Night's Watch, he reminded himself as he
hurried across the yard. I am. I can do this. There had been a time when he had quaked and squeaked if
Lord Mormont so much as looked at him, but that was the old Sam, before the Fist of the First Men and
Craster's Keep, before the wights and Coldhands, and the Other on his dead horse. He was braver now.
Gilly made me braver, he'd told Jon. It was true. It had to be true.
Cotter Pyke was the scarier of the two commanders, so Sam went to him first, while his courage was
still hot. He found him in the old Shieldhall, dicing with three of his Eastwatch men and a red-headed
sergeant who had come from Dragonstone with Stannis.
When Sam begged leave to speak with him, though, Pyke barked an order, and the others took the dice
and coins and left them.
No man would ever call Cotter Pyke handsome, though the body under his studded brigantine and
roughspun breeches was lean and hard and wiry strong. His eyes were small and close-set, his nose
broken, his widow's peak as sharply pointed as the head of a spear. The pox had ravaged his face badly,
and the beard he'd grown to hide the scars was thin and scraggly.
"Sam the Slayer!" he said, by way of greeting. "Are you sure you stabbed an Other, and not some child's
snow knight?"
This isn't starting well. "it was the dragonglass that killed it, my lord," Sam explained feebly.
"Aye, no doubt. Well, out with it, Slayer. Did the maester send you to me?"
"The maester?" Sam swallowed. "I ... I just left him, my lord." That wasn't truly a lie, but if Pyke chose to
read it wrong, it might make him more inclined to listen. Sam took a deep breath and launched into his
plea.
Pyke cut him off before he'd said twenty words. "You want me to kneel down and kiss the hem of
Mallister's pretty cloak, is that it? I might have known. You lordlings all flock like sheep. Well, tell
Aemon that he's wasted your breath and my time. if anyone withdraws it should be Mallister. The man's
too bloody old for the job, maybe you ought to go tell him that. We choose him, and we're like to be
back here in a year, choosing someone else."
"He's old," Sam agreed, "but he's well ex-experienced."
"At sitting in his tower and fussing over maps, maybe. What does he plan to do, write letters to the
wights? He's a knight, well and good, but he's not a fighter, and I don't give a kettle of piss who he
unhorsed in some fool tourney fifty years ago. The Halfhand fought all his battles, even an old blind man
should see that. And we need a fighter more than ever with this bloody king on top of us. Today it's ruins
and empty fields,
well and good, but what will His Grace want come the morrow? You think Mallister has the belly to


stand up to Stannis Baratheon and that red bitch?" He laughed. "I don't."
"You won't support him, then?" said Sam, dismayed.
"Are you Sam the Slayer or Deaf Dick? No, I won't support him." Pyke jabbed a finger at his face.
"Understand this, boy. I don't want the bloody job, and never did. I fight best with a deck beneath me,
not a horse, and Castle Black is too far from the sea. But I'll be buggered with a red-hot sword before I
turn the Night's Watch over to that preening eagle from the Shadow Tower. And you can run back to the
old man and tell him I said so, if he asks." He stood. "Get out of my sight."
It took all the courage Sam had left in him to say, "W-what if there was someone else? Could you
s-support someone else?"
"Who? Bowen Marsh? The man counts spoons. Othell's a follower, does what he's told and does it
well, but no more'n that. Slynt ... well, his men like him, I'll grant you, and it would almost be worth it to
stick him down the royal craw and see if Stannis gagged, but no. There's too much of King's Landing in
that one. A toad grows wings and thinks he's a bloody dragon." Pyke laughed. "Who does that leave,
Hobb? We could pick him, I suppose, only then who's going to boil your mutton, Slayer? You look like
a man who likes his bloody mutton."
There was nothing more to say. Defeated, Sam could only stammer out his thanks and take his leave. I
will do better with Ser Denys, he tried to tell himself as he walked through the castle. Ser Denys was a
knight, highborn and well-spoken, and he had treated Sam most courteously when he'd found him and
Gilly on the road. Ser Denys will listen to me, he has to.
The commander of the Shadow Tower had been born beneath the Booming Tower of Seagard, and
looked every inch a Mallister. Sable trimmed his collar and accented the sleeves of his black velvet
doublet. A silver eagle fastened its claws in the gathered folds of his cloak. His beard was white as snow,
his hair was largely gone, and his face was deeply lined, it was true. Yet he still had grace in his
movements and teeth in his mouth, and the years had dimmed neither his blue-grey eyes nor his courtesy.
"My lord of Tarly," he said, when his steward brought Sam to him in the Lance, where the Shadow
Tower men were staying. "I am pleased to see that you've recovered from your ordeal. Might I offer you
a cup of wine? Your lady mother is a Florent, I recall. One day I must tell you about the time I unhorsed
both of your grandfathers in the same tourney. Not today, though, I know we have more pressing
concerns. You come from Maester Aemon, to be sure. Does he have counsel to offer me?"
Sam took a sip of wine, and chose his words with care. "A maester
chained and sworn ... it would not be proper for him to be seen as having influenced the choice of Lord
Commander. . . "
The old knight smiled. "Which is why he has not come to me himself. Yes, I quite understand, Samwell.
Aemon and I are both old men, and wise in such matters. Say what you came to say."
The wine was sweet, and Ser Denys listened to Sam's plea with grave courtesy, unlike Cotter Pyke. But
when he was done, the old knight shook his head. "I agree that it would be a dark day in our history if a
king were to name our Lord Commander. This king especially. He is not like to keep his crown for long.
But truly, Samwell, it ought to be Pyke who withdraws. I have more support than he does, and I am
better suited to the office."


"You are," Sam agreed, "but Cotter Pyke might serve. It's said he has oft proved himself in battle." He
did not mean to offend Ser Denys by praising his rival, but how else could he convince him to withdraw?
"Many of my brothers have proved themselves in battle. It is not enough. Some matters cannot be
settled with a battleaxe. Maester Aemon will understand that, though Cotter Pyke does not. The Lord
Commander of the Night's Watch is a lord, first and foremost. He must be able to treat with other lords
... and with kings as well. He must be a man worthy of respect." Ser Denys leaned forward. "We are the
sons of great lords, you and I. We know the importance of birth, blood, and that early training that can
ne'er be replaced. I was a squire at twelve, a knight at eighteen, a champion at two-and-twenty. I have
been the commander at the Shadow Tower for thirty-three years. Blood, birth, and training have fitted
me to deal with kings. Pyke ... well, did you hear him this morning, asking if His Grace would wipe his
bottom? Samwell, it is not my habit to speak unkindly of my brothers, but let us be frank ... the ironborn
are a race of pirates and thieves, and Cotter Pyke was raping and murdering when he was still half a boy.
Maester Harmune reads and writes his letters, and has for years. No, loath as I am to disappoint
Maester Aemon, I could not in honor stand aside for Pyke of Eastwatch."
This time Sam was ready. "Might you for someone else? If it was someone more suitable?"
Ser Denys considered a moment. "I have never desired the honor for its own sake. At the last choosing,
I stepped aside gratefully when Lord Mormont's name was offered, just as I had for Lord Qorgyle at the
choosing before that. So long as the Night's Watch remains in good hands, I am content. But Bowen
Marsh is not equal to the task, no more than Othell Yarwyck. And this so-called Lord of Harrenhal is a
butcher's whelp upjumped by the Lannisters. Small wonder he is venal and corrupt."
"There's another man," Sam blurted out. "Lord Commander Mormont trusted him. So did Donal Noye
and Qhorin Halfhand. Though he's not as highly born as you, he comes from old blood. He was
castle-born and castle-raised, and he learned sword and lance from a knight and letters from a maester
of the Citadel. His father was a lord, and his brother a king."
Ser Denys stroked his long white beard. "Mayhaps," he said, after a long moment. "He is very young,
but ... mayhaps. He might serve, I grant you, though I would be more suitable. I have no doubt of that. I
would be the wiser choice."
Ion said there could be honor in a lie, if it were told for the right reason. Sam said, "If we do not choose
a Lord Commander tonight, King Stannis means to name Cotter Pyke. He said as much to Maester
Aemon this morning, after all of you had left."
"I see." Ser Denys rose. "I must think on this. Thank you, Samwell. And give my thanks to Maester
Aemon as well."
Sam was trembling by the time he left the Lance. What have I done? he thought. What have I said? If
they caught him in his lie, they would ... what? Send me to the Wall? Rip my entrails out? Turn me into a
wight? Suddenly it all seemed absurd. How could he be so frightened of Cotter Pyke and Ser Denys
Mallister, when he had seen a raven eating Small Paul's face?
Pyke was not pleased by his return. "You again? Make it quick, you are starting to annoy me."
"I only need a moment more," Sam promised. "You won't withdraw for Ser Denys, you said, but you
might for someone else."
"Who is it this time, Slayer? You?"


"No. A fighter. Donal Noye gave him the Wall when the wildlings came, and he was the Old Bear's
squire. The only thing is, he's bastard-born."
Cotter Pyke laughed. "Bloody hell. That would shove a spear up Mallister's arse, wouldn't it? Might be
worth it just for that. How bad could the boy be?" He snorted. "I'd be better, though. I'm what's needed,
any fool can see that."
"Any fool," Sam agreed, "even me. But ... well, I shouldn't be telling you, but ... King Stannis means to
force Ser Denys on us, if we do not choose a man tonight. I heard him tell Maester Aemon that, after the
rest of you were sent away."
Chapter 79
JON
Iron Emmett was a long, lanky young ranger whose endurance, strength, and swordsmanship were the
pride of Eastwatch. Jon always came away from their sessions stiff and sore, and woke the next day
covered with bruises, which was just the way he wanted it. He would never get any better going up
against the likes of Satin and Horse, or even Grenn.
Most days he gave as good as he got, Jon liked to think, but not today. He had hardly slept last night,
and after an hour of restless tossing he had given up even the attempt, dressed, and walked the top of the
Wall till the sun came up, wrestling with Stannis Baratheon's offer. The lack of sleep was catching up with
him now, and Emmett was hammering him mercilessly across the yard, driving him back on his heels with
one long looping cut after another, and slamming him with his shield from time to time for good measure.
Jon's arm had gone numb from the shock of impact, and the edgeless practice sword seemed to be
growing heavier with every passing moment.
He was almost ready to lower his blade and call a halt when Emmett feinted low and came in over his
shield with a savage forehand slash that caught Jon on the temple. He staggered, his helm and head both
ringing from the force of the blow. For half a heartbeat the world beyond his eyeslit was a blur.
And then the years were gone, and he was back at Winterfell once more, wearing a quilted leather coat
in place of mail and plate. His sword was made of wood, and it was Robb who stood facing him, not
iron Emmett.
Every morning they had trained together, since they were big enough to walk; Snow and Stark, spinning
and slashing about the wards of Winterfell, shouting and laughing, sometimes crying when there was no
one else to see. They were not little boys when they fought, but knights and mighty heroes. "I'm Prince
Aemon the Dragonknight," Jon would call out, and Robb would shout back, "Well, I'm Florian the Fool."
Or Robb would say, "I'm the Young Dragon," and Jon would reply, "I'm Ser Ryam Redwyne."
That morning he called it first. "I'm Lord of Winterfell!" he cried, as he had a hundred times before. only
this time, this time, Robb had answered, "You can't be Lord of Winterfell, you're bastard-born. My lady
mother says you can't ever be the Lord of Winterfell."


I thought I had forgotten that. Jon could taste blood in his mouth, from the blow he'd taken.
in the end Halder and Horse had to pull him away from Iron Emmett, one man on either arm. The ranger
sat on the ground dazed, his shield half in splinters, the visor of his helm knocked askew, and his sword
six yards away. "Jon, enough," Halder was shouting, "he's down, you disarmed him. Enough!"
No. Not enough. Never enough. Jon let his sword drop. "I'm sorry," he muttered. "Emmett, are you
hurt?"
Iron Emmett pulled his battered helm off. "Was there some part of yield you could not comprehend,
Lord Snow?" It was said amiably, though. Emmett was an amiable man, and he loved the song of
swords. "Warrior defend me," he groaned, "now I know how Qhorin Halfhand must have felt."
That was too much. Jon wrenched free of his friends and retreated to the armory, alone. His ears were
still ringing from the blow Emmett had dealt him. He sat on the bench and buried his head in his hands.
Why am I so angry? he asked himself, but it was a stupid question. Lord of Winterfell. I could be the
Lord of Winterfell. My father's heir.
It was not Lord Eddard's face he saw floating before him, though; it was Lady Catelyn's. With her deep
blue eyes and hard cold mouth, she looked a bit like Stannis. Iron, he thought, but brittle. She was
looking at him the way she used to look at him at Winterfell, whenever he had bested Robb at swords or
sums or most anything. Who are you? that look had always seemed to say. This is not your place. Why
are you here?
His friends were still out in the practice yard, but Jon was in no fit state to face them. He left the armory
by the back, descending a steep flight of stone steps to the wormways, the tunnels that linked the castle's
keeps and towers below the earth. It was short walk to the bathhouse, where he took a cold plunge to
wash the sweat off and soaked in a hot stone tub. The warmth took some of the ache from his muscles
and made
him think of Winterfell's muddy pools, steaming and bubbling in the godswood. Winterfell, he thought.
Theon left it burned and broken, but I could restore it. Surely his father would have wanted that, and
Robb as well. They would never have wanted the castle left in ruins.
You can't be the Lord of Winterfell, you're bastard-born, he heard Robb say again. And the stone kings
were growling at him with granite tongues. You do not belong here. This is not your place. When Jon
closed his eyes he saw the heart tree, with its pale limbs, red leaves, and solemn face. The weirwood was
the heart of Winterfell, Lord Eddard always said ... but to save the castle Jon would have to tear that
heart up by its ancient roots, and feed it to the red woman's hungry fire god. I have no right, he thought.
Winterfell belongs to the old gods.
The sound of voices echoing off the vaulted ceiling brought him back to Castle Black. "I don't know," a
man was saying, in a voice thick with doubts. "Maybe if I knew the man better ... Lord Stannis didn't
have much good to say of him, I'll tell you that."
"When has Stannis Baratheon ever had much good to say of anyone?" Ser Alliser's flinty voice was
unmistakable. "If we let Stannis choose our Lord Commander, we become his bannermen in all but


name. Tywin Lannister is not like to forget that, and you know it will be Lord Tywin who wins in the end.
He's already beaten Stannis once, on the Blackwater."
"Lord Tywin favors Slynt," said Bowen Marsh, in a fretful, anxious voice. "I can show you his letter,
Othell. 'Our faithful friend and servant' he called him."
Jon Snow sat up suddenly, and the three men froze at the sound of the slosh. "My lords," he said with
cold courtesy.
"What are you doing here, bastard?" Thorne asked.
"Bathing. But don't let me spoil your plotting." Jon climbed from the water, dried, dressed, and left them
to conspire.
Outside, he found he had no idea where he was going. He walked past the shell of the Lord
Commander's Tower, where once he'd saved the Old Bear from a dead man; past the spot where
Ygritte had died with that sad smile on her face; past the King's Tower where he and Satin and Deaf
Dick Follard had waited for the Magnar and his Thenns; past the heaped and charred remains of the
great wooden stair. The inner gate was open, so Jon went down the tunnel, through the Wall. He could
feel the cold around him, the weight of all the ice above his head. He walked past the place where Donal
Noye and Mag the Mighty had fought and died together, through the new outer gate, and back into the
pale cold sunlight.
Only then did he permit himself to stop, to take a breath, to think. Othell. Yarwyck was not a man of
strong convictions, except when it
came to wood and stone and mortar. The Old Bear had known that. Thorne and Marsh will sway him,
Yarwyck will support Lord Janos, and Lord Janos will be chosen Lord Commander. And what does
that leave me, if not Winterfell?
A wind swirled against the Wall, tugging at his cloak. He could feel the cold coming off the ice the way
heat comes off a fire. Jon pulled up his hood and began to walk again. The afternoon was growing old,
and the sun was low in the west. A hundred yards away was the camp where King Stannis had confined
his wildling captives within a ring of ditches, sharpened stakes, and high wooden fences. To his left were
three great firepits, where the victors had burned the bodies of all the free folk to die beneath the Wall,


huge pelted giants and little Hornfoot men alike. The killing ground was still a desolation of scorched
weeds and hardened pitch, but Mance's people had left traces of themselves everywhere; a torn hide that
might have been part of a tent, a giant's maul, the wheel of a chariot, a broken spear, a pile of mammoth
dung. On the edge of the haunted forest, where the tents had been, Jon found an oakwood stump and
sat.
Ygritte wanted me to be a wildling. Stannis wants me to be the Lord of Winterfell. But what do I want?
The sun crept down the sky to dip behind the Wall where it curved through the western hills. Jon
watched as that towering expanse of ice took on the reds and pinks of sunset. Would I sooner be hanged
for a tumcloak by Lord Janos, or forswear my vows, marry Val, and become the Lord of Winterfell? It
seemed an easy choice when he thought of it in those terms ... though if Ygritte had still been alive, it
might have been even easier. Val was a stranger to him. She was not hard on the eyes, certainly, and she
had been sister to Mance Rayder's queen, but still ...
I would need to steal her if I wanted her love, but she might give me children. I might someday hold a
son of my own blood in my arms. A son was something Jon Snow had never dared dream of, since he
decided to live his life on the Wall. I could name him Robb. Val would want to keep her sister's son, but
we could foster him at Winterfell, and Gilly's boy as well. Sam would never need to tell his lie. We'd find
a place for Gilly too, and Sam could come visit her once a year or so. Mance's son and Craster's would
grow up brothers, as I once did with Robb.
He wanted it, Jon knew then. He wanted it as much as he had ever wanted anything. I have always
wanted it, he thought, guiltily. May the gods forgive me. it was a hunger inside him, sharp as a
dragonglass blade. A hunger ... he could feel it. It was food he needed, prey, a red deer that stank of fear
or a great elk proud and defiant. He needed to kill and fill his belly with fresh meat and hot dark blood.
His mouth began to water with the thought.
it was a long moment before he understood what was happening. When he did, he bolted to his feet.
"Ghost?" He turned toward the wood, and there he came, padding silently out of the green dusk, the
breath coming warm and white from his open jaws. "Ghost!" he shouted, and the direwolf broke into a
run. He was leaner than he had been, but bigger as well, and the only sound he made was the soft crunch
of dead leaves beneath his paws. When he reached Jon he leapt, and they wrestled amidst brown grass
and long shadows as the stars came out above them. "Gods, wolf, where have you been?" Jon said when
Ghost stopped worrying at his forearm. "I thought you'd died on me, like Robb and Ygritte and all the
rest. I've had no sense of you, not since I climbed the Wall, not even in dreams." The direwolf had no
answer, but he licked Jon's face with a tongue like a wet rasp, and his eyes caught the last light and shone
like two great red suns.
Red eyes, Jon realized, but not like Melisandre's. He had a weirwood's eyes. Red eyes, red mouth,
white fur. Blood and bone, like a heart tree. He belongs to the old gods, this one. And he alone of all the
direwolves was white. Six pups they'd found in the late summer snows, him and Robb; five that were


grey and black and brown, for the five Starks, and one white, as white as Snow.
He had his answer then.
Beneath the Wall, the queen's men were kindling their nightfire. He saw Melisandre emerge from the
tunnel with the king beside her, to lead the prayers she believed would keep the dark away. "Come,
Ghost," Jon told the wolf. "With me. You're hungry, I know. I could feel it." They ran together for the
gate, circling wide around the nightfire, where reaching flames clawed at the black belly of the night.
The king's men were much in evidence in the yards of Castle Black. They stopped as Jon went by, and
gaped at him. None of them had ever seen a direwolf before, he realized, and Ghost was twice as large
as the common wolves that prowled their southron greenwoods. As he walked toward the armory, Jon
chanced to look up and saw Val standing in her tower window. I'm sorry, he thought. I'm not the man to
steal you out of there.
in the practice yard he came upon a dozen king's men with torches and long spears in their hands. Their
sergeant looked at Ghost and scowled, and a couple of his men lowered their spears until the knight who
led them said, "Move aside and let them pass." To Jon he said, "You're late for your supper."
"Then get out of my way, ser," Jon replied, and he did.
He could hear the noise even before he reached the bottom of the steps; raised voices, curses, someone
pounding on a table. Jon stepped into the vault all but unnoticed. His brothers crowded the benches and
the tables, but more were standing and shouting than were sitting, and no one was eating. There was no
food. What's happening here? Lord Janos Slynt was bellowing about tumcloaks and treason, Iron
Emmett stood on a table with a naked sword in his fist, Three-Finger Hobb was cursing a ranger from
the Shadow Tower ... some Eastwatch man slammed his fist onto the table again and again, demanding
quiet, but all that did was add to the din echoing off the vaulted ceiling.
Pyp was the first to see Jon. He grinned at the sight of Ghost, put two fingers in his mouth, and whistled
as only a mummer's boy could whistle. The shrill sound cut through the clamor like a sword. As Jon
walked toward the tables, more of the brothers took note, and fell quiet. A hush spread across the cellar,
until the only sounds were Jon's heels clicking on the stone floor, and the soft crackle of the logs in the
hearth.


Ser Alliser Thorne shattered the silence. "The tumcloak graces us with his presence at last."
Lord Janos was red-faced and quivering. "The beast," he gasped. "Look! The beast that tore the life
from Halfhand. A warg walks among us, brothers. A WARG! This ... this creature is not fit to lead us!
This beastling is not fit to live!"
Ghost bared his teeth, but Jon put a hand on his head. "My lord," he said, "will you tell me what's
happened here?"
Maester Aemon answered, from the far end of the hall. "Your name has been put forth as Lord
Commander, Jon."
That was so absurd Jon had to smile. "By who?" he said, looking for his friends. This had to be one of
Pyp's japes, surely. But Pyp shrugged at him, and Grerm shook his head. It was Dolorous Edd Tollett
who stood. "By me. Aye, it's a terrible cruel thing to do to a friend, but better you than me."
Lord Janos started sputtering again. "This, this is an outrage. We ought to hang this boy. Yes! Hang him,
I say, hang him for a tumcloak and a warg, along with his friend Mance Rayder. Lord Commander? I will
not have it, I will not suffer it!"
Cotter Pyke stood up. "You won't suffer it? Might be you had those gold cloaks trained to lick your
bloody arse, but you're wearing a black cloak now."
"Any brother may offer any name for our consideration, so long as the man has said his vows," Ser
Denys Mallister said. "Tollett is well within his rights, my lord."
A dozen men started to talk at once, each trying to drown out the others, and before long half the hall
was shouting once more. This time it was Ser Alliser Thorne who leapt up on the table, and raised his
hands for quiet. "Brothers!" he cried, "this gains us naught. I say we vote. This king who has taken the
King's Tower has posted men at all the doors to


see that we do not eat nor leave till we have made a choice. So be it! We will choose, and choose again,
all night if need be, until we have our lord ... but before we cast our tokens, I believe our First Builder has
something to say to us."
Othell Yarwyck stood up slowly, frowning. The big builder rubbed his long lantern jaw and said, "Well,
I'm pulling my name out. If you wanted me, you had ten chances to choose me, and you didn't. Not
enough of you, anyway. I was going to say that those who were casting a token for me ought to choose
Lord Janos . . . "
Ser Alliser nodded. "Lord Slynt is the best possible
"I wasn't done, Alliser," Yarwyck complained. "Lord Slynt commanded the City Watch in King's
Landing, we all know, and he was Lord of Harrenhal . . . "
"He's never seen Harrenhal," Cotter Pyke shouted out.
"Well, that's so," said Yarwyck. "Anyway, now that I'm standing here, I don't recall why I thought Slynt
would be such a good choice. That would be sort of kicking King Stannis in the mouth, and I don't see
how that serves us. Might be Snow would be better. He's been longer on the Wall, he's Ben Stark's
nephew, and he served the Old Bear as squire." Yarwyck shrugged. "Pick who you want, just so it's not
me." He sat down.
Janos Slynt had turned from red to purple, Jon saw, but Ser Alliser Thorne had gone pale. The
Eastwatch man was pounding his fist on the table again, but now he was shouting for the kettle. Some of
his friends took up the cry. "Kettle!" they roared, as one. "Kettle, kettle, KETTLE!"
The kettle was in the comer by the hearth, a big black potbellied thing with two huge handles and a
heavy lid. Maester Aemon said a word to Sam and Clydas and they went and grabbed the handles and
dragged the kettle over to the table. A few of the brothers were already queueing up by the token barrels
as Clydas took the lid off and almost dropped it on his foot. With a raucous scream and a clap of wings,
a huge raven burst out of the kettle. It flapped upward, seeking the rafters perhaps, or a window to make
its escape, but there were no rafters in the vault, nor windows either. The raven was trapped. Cawing
loudly, it circled the hall, once, twice, three times. And Jon heard Samwell Tarly shout, "I know that bird!
That's Lord Mormont's raven!"


The raven landed on the table nearest Jon. "Snow," it cawed. it was an old bird, dirty and bedraggled.
"Snow," it said again, "Snow, snow, snow" It walked to the end of the table, spread its wings again, and
flew to Jon's shoulder.
Lord Janos Slynt sat down so heavily he made a thump, but Ser Alliser filled the vault with mocking
laughter. "Ser Piggy thinks we're all fools, brothers," he said. "He's taught the bird this little trick. They all
say
snow, go up to the rookery and hear for yourselves. Mormont's bird had more words than that."
The raven cocked its head and looked at Jon. "Corn?" it said hopefully. When it got neither corn nor
answer, it quorked and muttered, "Kettle? Kettle? Kettle?"
The rest was arrowheads, a torrent of arrowheads, a flood of arrowheads, arrowheads enough to
drown the last few stones and shells, and all the copper pennies too.
When the count was done, Jon found himself surrounded. Some clapped him on the back, whilst others
bent the knee to him as if he were a lord in truth. Satin, Owen the Oaf, Halder, Toad, Spare Boot, Giant,
Mully, Ulmer of the Kingswood, Sweet Donnel Hill, and half a hundred more pressed around him.
Dywen clacked his wooden teeth and said, "Gods be good, our Lord Commander's still in swaddling
clothes." Iron Emmett said, "I hope this don't mean I can't beat the bloody piss out of you next time we
train, my lord." Three-Finger Hobb wanted to know if he'd still be eating with the men, or if he'd want his
meals sent up to his solar. Even Bowen Marsh came up to say he would be glad to continue as Lord
Steward if that was Lord Snow's wish.
"Lord Snow," said Cotter Pyke, "if you muck this up, I'm going to rip your liver out and eat it raw with
onions."
Ser Denys Mallister was more courteous. "It was a hard thing young Samwell asked of me," the old
knight confessed. "When Lord Qorgyle was chosen, I told myself, 'No matter, he has been longer on the
Wall than you have, your time will come.' When it was Lord Mormont, I thought, 'He is strong and
fierce, but he is old, your time may yet come.' But you are half a boy, Lord Snow, and now I must return
to the Shadow Tower knowing that my time will never come." He smiled a tired smile. "Do not make me
die regretful. Your uncle was a great man. Your lord father and his father as well. I shall expect full as
much of you."


"Aye," said Cotter Pyke. "And you can start by telling those king's men that it's done, and we want our
bloody supper."
"Supper," screamed the raven. "Supper, supper."
The king's men cleared the door when they told them of the choosing, and Three-Finger Hobb and half a
dozen helpers went trotting off to the kitchen to fetch the food. Jon did not wait to eat. He walked across
the castle, wondering if he were dreaming, with the raven on his shoulder and Ghost at his heels. Pyp,
Grenn, and Sam trailed after him, chattering, but he hardly heard a word until Grenn whispered, "Sam did
it," and Pyp said, "Sam did it!" Pyp had brought a wineskin with him, and he took a long drink and
chanted, "Sam, Sam, Sam the wizard, Sam the wonder, Sam Sam the marvel man, he did it. But when
did you hide the raven in the kettle, Sam, and how in seven hells could you be certain it
would fly to Jon? It would have mucked up everything if the bird had decided to perch on Janos Slynt's
fat head.,
"I had nothing to do with the bird," Sam insisted. "When it flew out of the kettle I almost wet myself."
Jon laughed, half amazed that he still remembered how. "You're all a bunch of mad fools, do you know
that?"
"Us?" said Pyp. "You call us fools? We're not the ones who got chosen as the
nine-hundredth-and-ninety-eighth Lord Commander of the Night's Watch. You best have some wine,
Lord Jon. I think you're going to need a lot of wine."
So Jon Snow took the wineskin from his hand and had a swallow. But only one. The Wall was his, the
night was dark, and he had a king to face.
Chapter 80
SANSA


She awoke all at once, every nerve atingle. For a moment she did not remember where she was. She
had dreamt that she was little, still sharing a bedchamber with her sister Arya. But it was her maid she
heard tossing in sleep, not her sister, and this was not Winterfell, but the Eyrie. And I am Alayne Stone, a
bastard girl. The room was cold and black, though she was warm beneath the blankets. Dawn had not
yet come. Sometimes she dreamed of Ser Ilyn Payne and woke with her heart thumping, but this dream
had not been like that. Home. It was a dream of home.
The Eyrie was no home. It was no bigger than Maegor's Holdfast, and outside its sheer white walls was
only the mountain and the long treacherous descent past Sky and Snow and Stone to the Gates of the
Moon on the valley floor. There was no place to go and little to do. The older servants said these halls
rang with laughter when her father and Robert Baratheon had been Jon Arryn's wards, but those days
were many years gone. Her aunt kept a small household, and seldom permitted any guests to ascend past
the Gates of the Moon. Aside from her aged maid, Sansa's only companion was the Lord Robert, eight
going on three.
And Marillion. There is always Marillion. When he played for them at supper, the young singer often
seemed to be singing directly at her. Her aunt was far from pleased. Lady Lysa doted on Marillion, and
had banished two serving girls and even a page for telling lies about him.
Lysa was as lonely as she was. Her new husband seemed to spend more time at the foot of the mountain
than he did atop it. He was gone now, had been gone the past four days, meeting with the Corbrays.
From
bits and pieces of overheard conversations Sansa knew that Jon Arryn's bannermen resented Lysa's
marriage and begrudged Petyr his authority as Lord Protector of the Vale. The senior branch of House
Royce was close to open revolt over her aunt's failure to aid Robb in his war, and the Waynwoods,
Redforts, Belmores, and Templetons were giving them every support. The mountain clans were being
troublesome as well, and old Lord Hunter had died so suddenly that his two younger sons were accusing
their elder brother of having murdered him. The Vale of Arryn might have been spared the worst of the
war, but it was hardly the idyllic place that Lady Lysa had made it out to be.
I am not going back to sleep, Sansa realized. My head is all a tumult. She pushed her pillow away
reluctantly, threw back the blankets, went to her window, and opened the shutters.


Snow was falling on the Eyrie.
Outside the flakes drifted down as soft and silent as memory. Was this what woke me? Already the
snowfall lay thick upon the garden below, blanketing the grass, dusting the shrubs and statues with white
and weighing down the branches of the trees. The sight took Sansa back to cold nights long ago, in the
long summer of her childhood.
She had last seen snow the day she'd left Winterfell. That was a lighter fall than this, she remembered.
Robb had melting flakes in his hair when he hugged me, and the snowball Arya tried to make kept
coming apart in her hands. It hurt to remember how happy she had been that morning. Hullen had helped
her mount, and she'd ridden out with the snowflakes swirling around her, off to see the great wide world.
I thought my song was beginning that day, but it was almost done.
Sansa left the shutters open as she dressed. It would be cold, she knew, though the Eyrie's towers
encircled the garden and protected it from the worst of the mountain winds. She donned silken
smallclothes and a linen shift, and over that a warm dress of blue lambswool. Two pairs of hose for her
legs, boots that laced up to her knees, heavy leather gloves, and finally a hooded cloak of soft white fox
fur.
Her maid rolled herself more tightly in her blanket as the snow began to drift in the window. Sansa eased
open the door, and made her way down the winding stair. When she opened the door to the garden, it
was so lovely that she held her breath, unwilling to disturb such perfect beauty. The snow drifted down
and down, all in ghostly silence, and lay thick and unbroken on the ground. All color had fled the world
outside. It was a place of whites and blacks and greys. White towers and white snow and white statues,
black shadows and black trees, the dark grey sky above. A pure world, Sansa thought. I do not belong
here.
Yet she stepped out all the same. Her boots tore ankle-deep holes into the smooth white surface of the
snow, yet made no sound. Sansa drifted
past frosted shrubs and thin dark trees, and wondered if she were still dreaming. Drifting snowflakes
brushed her face as light as lover's kisses, and melted on her cheeks. At the center of the garden, beside
the statue of the weeping woman that lay broken and half-buried on the ground, she turned her face up to
the sky and closed her eyes. She could feel the snow on her lashes, taste it on her lips. It was the taste of
Winterfell. The taste of innocence. The taste of dreams.
When Sansa opened her eyes again, she was on her knees. She did not remember falling. it seemed to


her that the sky was a lighter shade of grey. Dawn, she thought. Another day. Another new day. It was
the old days she hungered for. Prayed for. But who could she pray to? The garden had been meant for a
godswood once, she knew, but the soil was too thin and stony for a weirwood to take root. A
godswood without gods, as empty as me.
She scooped up a handful of snow and squeezed it between her fingers. Heavy and wet, the snow
packed easily. Sansa began to make snowballs, shaping and smoothing them until they were round and
white and perfect. She remembered a summer's snow in Winterfell when Arya and Bran had ambushed
her as she emerged from the keep one morning. They'd each had a dozen snowballs to hand, and she'd
had none. Bran had been perched on the roof of the covered bridge, out of reach, but Sansa had chased
Arya through the stables and around the kitchen until both of them were breathless. She might even have
caught her, but she'd slipped on some ice. Her sister came back to see if she was hurt. When she said
she wasn't, Arya hit her in the face with another snowball, but Sansa grabbed her leg and pulled her
down and was rubbing snow in her hair when Jory came along and pulled them apart, laughing.
What do I want with snowballs? She looked at her sad little arsenal. There's no one to throw them at.
She let the one she was making drop from her hand. I could build a snow knight instead, she thought. Or
even ...
She pushed two of her snowballs together, added a third, packed more snow in around them, and
patted the whole thing into the shape of a cylinder. When it was done, she stood it on end and used the
tip of her little finger to poke holes in it for windows. The crenellations around the top took a little more
care, but when they were done she had a tower. I need some walls now, Sansa thought, and then a
keep. She set to work.
The snow fell and the castle rose. Two walls ankle-high, the inner taller than the outer. Towers and
turrets, keeps and stairs, a round kitchen, a square armory, the stables along the inside of the west wall.
It was only a castle when she began, but before very long Sansa knew it was Winterfell. She found twigs
and fallen branches beneath the snow and broke off the ends to make the trees for the godswood. For
the gravestones in
the lichyard she used bits of bark. Soon her gloves and her boots were crusty white, her hands were
tingling, and her feet were soaked and cold, but she did not care. The castle was all that mattered. Some
things were hard to remember, but most came back to her easily, as if she had been there only yesterday.
The Library Tower, with the steep stonework stair twisting about its exterior. The gatehouse, two huge
bulwarks, the arched gate between them, crenellations all along the top ...
And all the while the snow kept falling, piling up in drifts around her buildings as fast as she raised them.
She was patting down the pitched roof of the Great Hall when she heard a voice, and looked up to see


her maid calling from her window. Was my lady well? Did she wish to break her fast? Sansa shook her
head, and went back to shaping snow, adding a chimney to one end of the Great Hall, where the hearth
would stand inside.
Dawn stole into her garden like a thief. The grey of the sky grew lighter still, and the trees and shrubs
turned a dark green beneath their stoles of snow. A few servants came out and watched her for a time,
but she paid them no mind and they soon went back inside where it was warmer. Sansa saw Lady Lysa
gazing down from her balcony, wrapped up in a blue velvet robe trimmed with fox fur, but when she
looked again her aunt was gone. Maester Colemon popped out of the rookery and peered down for a
while, skinny and shivering but curious.
Her bridges kept falling down. There was a covered bridge between the armory and the main keep, and
another that went from the fourth floor of the bell tower to the second floor of the rookery, but no matter
how carefully she shaped them, they would not hold together. The third time one collapsed on her, she
cursed aloud and sat back in helpless frustration.
"Pack the snow around a stick, Sansa."
She did not know how long he had been watching her, or when he had returned from the Vale. "A
stick?" she asked.
"That will give it strength enough to stand, I'd think," Petyr said. "May I come into your castle, my lady?"
Sansa was wary. "Don't break it. Be . . .
". . gentle?" He smiled. "Winterfell has withstood flercer enemies than me. It is Winterfell, is it not?"
"Yes," Sansa admitted.
He walked along outside the walls. "I used to dream of it, in those years after Cat went north with
Eddard Stark. In my dreams it was ever a dark place, and cold."


"No. It was always warm, even when it snowed. Water from the hot springs is piped through the walls
to warm them, and inside the glass gardens it was always like the hottest day of summer." She stood,
towering over the great white castle. "I can't think how to do the glass roof over the gardens."
Littlefinger stroked his chin, where his beard had been before Lysa had asked him to shave it off. "The
glass was locked in frames, no? Twigs are your answer. Peel them and cross them and use bark to tie
them together into frames. I'll show you." He moved through the garden, gathering up twigs and sticks
and shaking the snow from them. When he had enough, he stepped over both walls with a single long
stride and squatted on his heels in the middle of the yard. Sansa came closer to watch what he was
doing. His hands were deft and sure, and before long he had a crisscrossing latticework of twigs, very
like the one that roofed the glass gardens of Winterfell. "We will need to imagine the glass, to be sure," he
said when he gave it to her.
"This is just right," she said.
He touched her face. "And so is that."
Sansa did not understand. "And so is what?"
"Your smile, my lady. Shall I make another for you?"
"If you would.,,
"Nothing could please me more."
She raised the walls of the glass gardens while Littlefinger roofed them over, and when they were done
with that he helped her extend the walls and build the guardshall. When she used sticks for the covered
bridges, they stood, just as he had said they would. The First Keep was simple enough, an old round
drum tower, but Sansa was stymied again when it came to putting the gargoyles around the top. Again he
had the answer. "It's been snowing on your castle, my lady," he pointed out. "What do the gargoyles look
like when they're covered with snow?"


Sansa closed her eyes to see them in memory. "They're just white lumps."
"Well, then. Gargoyles are hard, but white lumps should be easy." And they were.
The Broken Tower was easier still. They made a tall tower together, kneeling side by side to roll it
smooth, and when they'd raised it Sansa stuck her fingers through the top, grabbed a handful of snow,
and flung it full in his face. Petyr yelped, as the snow slid down under his collar. "That was unchivalrously
done, my lady."
"As was bringing me here, when you swore to take me home."
She wondered where this courage had come from, to speak to him so frankly. From Winterfell, she
thought. I am stronger within the walls of Winterfell.
His face grew serious. "Yes, I played you false in that ... and in one other thing as well."
Sansa's stomach was aflutter. "What other thing?"
"I told you that nothing could please me more than to help you with your castle. I fear that was a lie as
well. Something else would please me more." He stepped closer. "This."
Sansa tried to step back, but he pulled her into his arms and suddenly he was kissing her. Feebly, she
tried to squirm, but only succeeded in pressing herself more tightly against him. His mouth was on hers,
swallowing her words. He tasted of mint. For half a heartbeat she yielded to his kiss ... before she turned
her face away and wrenched free. "What are you doing?"
Petyr straightened his cloak. "Kissing a snow maid."


"You're supposed to kiss her." Sansa glanced up at Lysa's balcony, but it was empty now. "Your lady
wife."
"I do. Lysa has no cause for complaint." He smiled. "I wish you could see yourself, my lady. You are so
beautiful. You're crusted over with snow like some little bear cub, but your face is flushed and you can
scarcely breathe. How long have you been out here? You must be very cold. Let me warm you, Sansa.
Take off those gloves, give me your hands."
"I won't." He sounded almost like Marillion, the night he'd gotten so drunk at the wedding. Only this time
Lothor Brune would not appear to save her; Ser Lothor was Petyr's man. "You shouldn't kiss me. I might
have been your own daughter. . . "
"Might have been," he admitted, with a rueful smile. "But you're not, are you? You are Eddard Stark's
daughter, and Cat's. But I think you might be even more beautiful than your mother was, when she was
your age."
"Petyr, please." Her voice sounded so weak. "Please.
"A castle!"
The voice was loud, shrill, and childish. Littleflnger turned away from her. "Lord Robert." He sketched a
bow. "Should you be out in the snow without your gloves?"
"Did you make the snow castle, Lord Littlefinger?"
"Alayne did most of it, my lord."
Sansa said, "It's meant to be Winterfell."
"Winterfell?" Robert was small for eight, a stick of a boy with splotchy skin and eyes that were always
runny. Under one arm he clutched the threadbare cloth doll he carried everywhere.


"Winterfell is the seat of House Stark," Sansa told her husband-to-be. "The great castle of the north."
"It's not so great." The boy knelt before the gatehouse. "Look, here comes a giant to knock it down." He
stood his doll in the snow and moved it jerkily. "Tromp tromp I'm a giant, I'm a giant," he chanted. "Ho
ho ho, open yourgates or I'll mash them and smash them." Swinging the doll by the legs, he knocked the
top off one gatehouse tower and then the other.
It was more than Sansa could stand. "Robert, stop that." Instead he
swung the doll again, and a foot of wall exploded. She grabbed for his hand but she caught the doll
instead. There was a loud ripping sound as the thin cloth tore. Suddenly she had the doll's head, Robert
had the legs and body, and the rag-and-sawdust stuffing was spilling in the snow.
Lord Robert's mouth trembled. "You killed him," he wailed. Then he began to shake. It started with no
more than a little shivering, but within a few short heartbeats he had collapsed across the castle, his limbs
flailing about violently. White towers and snowy bridges shattered and fell on all sides. Sansa stood
horrified, but Petyr Baelish seized her cousin's wrists and shouted for the maester.
Guards and serving girls arrived within instants to help restrain the boy, Maester Colemon a short time
later. Robert Arryn's shaking sickness was nothing new to the people of the Eyrie, and Lady Lysa had
trained them all to come rushing at the boy's first cry. The maester held the little lord's head and gave him
half a cup of dreamwine, murmuring soothing words. Slowly the violence of the fit seemed to ebb away,
till nothing remained but a small shaking of the hands. "Help him to my chambers," Colemon told the
guards. "A leeching will help calm him."
"It was my fault." Sansa showed them the doll's head. "I ripped his doll in two. I never meant to, but . . .
"
"His lordship was destroying the castle," said Petyr.
"A giant," the boy whispered, weeping. "It wasn't me, it was a giant hurt the castle. She killed him! I hate
her! She's a bastard and I hate her! I don't want to be leeched!"


"My lord, your blood needs thinning," said Maester Colemon. "It is the bad blood that makes you angry,
and the rage that brings on the shaking. Come now."
They led the boy away. My lord husband, Sansa thought, as she contemplated the ruins of Winterfell.
The snow had stopped, and it was colder than before. She wondered if Lord Robert would shake all
through their wedding. At least loffrey was sound of body. A mad rage seized hold of her. She picked up
a broken branch and smashed the torn doll's head down on top of it, then pushed it down atop the
shattered gatehouse of her snow castle. The servants looked aghast, but when Littlefinger saw what she'd
done he laughed. "If the tales be true, that's not the first giant to end up with his head on Winterfell's
walls."
"Those are only stories," she said, and left him there.
Back in her bedchamber, Sansa took off her cloak and her wet boots and sat beside the fire. She had
no doubt that she would be made to answer for Lord Robert's fit. Perhaps Lady Lysa Mll send me
away. Her aunt was quick to banish anyone who displeased her, and nothing displeased her quite so
much as people she suspected of mistreating her son.
Sansa would have welcomed banishment. The Gates of the Moon was much larger than the Eyrie, and
livelier as well. Lord Nestor Royce seemed gruff and stem, but his daughter Myranda kept his castle for
him, and everyone said how frolicsome she was. Even Sansa's supposed bastardy might not count too
much against her below. One of King Robert's baseborn daughters was in service to Lord Nestor, and
she and the Lady Myranda were said to be fast friends, as close as sisters.
I will tell my aunt that I don't want to marry Robert. Not even the High Septon himself could declare a
woman married if she refused to say the vows. She wasn't a beggar, no matter what her aunt said. She
was thirteen, a woman flowered and wed, the heir to Winterfell. Sansa felt sorry for her little cousin
sometimes, but she could not imagine ever wanting to be his wife. I would sooner be married to Tyrion
again. If Lady Lysa knew that, surely she'd send her away ... away from Robert's pouts and shakes and
runny eyes, away from Marillion's lingering looks, away from Petyr's kisses. I will tell her. I will!
It was late that afternoon when Lady Lysa summoned her. Sansa had been marshaling her courage all
day, but no sooner did Marillion appear at her door than all her doubts returned. "Lady Lysa requires
your presence in the High Hall." The singer's eyes undressed her as he spoke, but she was used to that.


Marillion was comely, there was no denying it; boyish and slender, with smooth skin, sandy hair, a
charming smile. But he had made himself well hated in the Vale, by everyone but her aunt and little Lord
Robert. To hear the servants talk, Sansa was not the first maid to suffer his advances, and the others had
not had Lothor Brune to defend them. But Lady Lysa would hear no complaints against him. Since
coming to the Eyrie, the singer had become her favorite. He sang Lord Robert to sleep every night, and
tweaked the noses of Lady Lysa's suitors with verses that made mock of their foibles. Her aunt had
showered him with gold and gifts; costly clothes, a gold arm ring, a belt studded with moonstones, a fine
horse. She had even given him her late husband's favorite falcon. It all served to make Marillion
unfailingly courteous in Lady Lysa's presence, and unfailingly arrogant outside it.
"Thank you," Sansa told him stiffly. "I know the way."
He would not leave. "My lady said to bring you."
Bring me? She did not like the sound of that. "Are you a guardsman now?" Littlefinger had dismissed the
Eyrie's captain of guards and put Ser Lothor Brune in his place.
"Do you require guarding?" Marillion said lightly. "I am composing a new song, you should know. A
song so sweet and sad it will melt even your frozen heart. 'The Roadside Rose/ I mean to call it. About a
basebom girl so beautiful she bewitched every man who laid eyes upon her."
I am a Stark of Winterfell, she longed to tell him. Instead she nodded, and let him escort her down the
tower steps and along a bridge. The High Hall had been closed as long as she'd been at the Eyrie. Sansa
wondered why her aunt had opened it. Normally she preferred the comfort of her solar, or the cozy
warmth of Lord Arryn's audience chamber with its view of the waterfall.
Two guards in sky-blue cloaks flanked the carved wooden doors of the High Hall, spears in hand. "No
one is to enter so long as Alayne is with Lady Lysa," Marillion told them.
"Aye." The men let them pass, then crossed their spears. Marillion swung the doors shut and barred
them with a third spear, longer and thicker than those the guards had bome.
Sansa felt a prickle of unease. "Why did you do that?"


"My lady awaits you."
She looked about uncertainly. Lady Lysa sat on the dais in a highbacked chair of carved weirwood,
alone. To her right was a second chair, taller than her own, with a stack of blue cushions piled on the
seat, but Lord Robert was not in it. Sansa hoped he'd recovered. Marillion was not like to tell her,
though.
Sansa walked down the blue silk carpet between rows of fluted pillars slim as lances. The floors and
walls of the High Hall were made of milk-white marble veined with blue. Shafts of pale daylight slanted
down through narrow arched windows along the eastern wall. Between the windows were torches,
mounted in high iron sconces, but none of them was lit. Her footsteps fell softly on the carpet. Outside the
wind blew cold and lonely.
Amidst so much white marble even the sunlight looked chilly, somehow ... though not half so chilly as her
aunt. Lady Lysa had dressed in a gown of cream-colored velvet and a necklace of sapphires and
moonstones. Her auburn hair had been done up in a thick braid, and fell across one shoulder. She sat in
the high seat watching her niece approach, her face red and puffy beneath the paint and powder. On the
wall behind her hung a huge banner, the moon-and-falcon of House Arryn in cream and blue.
Sansa stopped before the dais, and curtsied. "My lady. You sent for me." She could still hear the sound
of the wind, and the soft chords Marillion was playing at the foot of the hall.
"I saw what you did," the Lady Lysa said.
Sansa smoothed down the folds of her skirt. "I trust Lord Robert is better? I never meant to rip his doll.
He was smashing my snow castle, I only..."
"Will you play the coy deceiver with me?" her aunt said. "I was not speaking of Robert's doll. I saw you
kissing him."
The High Hall seemed to grow a little colder. The walls and floor and columns might have turned to ice.
"He kissed me."


Lysa's nostrils flared. "And why would he do that? He has a wife who loves him. A woman grown, not a
little girl. He has no need for the likes of you. Confess, child. You threw yourself at him. That was the
way of it."
Sansa took a step backward. "That's not true."
"Where are you going? Are you afraid? Such wanton behavior must be punished, but I will not be hard
on you. We keep a whipping boy for Robert, as is the custom in the Free Cities. His health is too delicate
for him to bear the rod himself. I shall find some common girl to take your whipping, but first you must
own up to what you've done. I cannot abide a liar, Alayne."
"I was building a snow castle," Sansa said. "Lord Petyr was helping me, and then he kissed me. That's
what you saw."
"Have you no honor?" her aunt said sharply. "Or do you take me for a fool? You do, don't you? You
take me for a fool. Yes ' I see that now. I am not a fool. You think you can have any man you want
because you're young and beautiful. Don't think I haven't seen the looks you give Marillion. I know
everything that happens in the Eyrie, little lady. And I have known your like before, too. But you are
mistaken if you think big eyes and strumpet's smiles will win you Petyr. He is mine." She rose to her feet.
"They all tried to take him from me. My lord father, my husband, your mother ... Catelyn most of all. She
liked to kiss my Petyr too, oh yes she did."
Sansa retreated another step. "My mother?"
"Yes, your mother, your precious mother, my own sweet sister Catelyn. Don't you think to play the
innocent with me, you vile little liar. All those years in Riverrun, she played with Petyr as if he were her
little toy. She teased him with smiles and soft words and wanton looks, and made his nights a torment."
"No." My mother is dead, she wanted to shriek. She was your own sister, and she's dead. "She didn't.
She wouldn't."
"How would you know? Were you there?" Lysa descended from the high seat, her skirts swirling. "Did
you come with Lord Bracken and Lord Blackwood, the time they visited to lay their feud before my


father? Lord Bracken's singer played for us, and Catelyn danced six dances with Petyr that night, six, I
counted. When the lords began to argue my father took them up to his audience chamber, so there was
no one to stop us drinking. Edmure got drunk, young as he was ... and Petyr tried to kiss your mother,
only she pushed him away. She laughed at him. He looked so wounded I thought my heart would burst,
and afterward he drank until he passed out at the table. Uncle Brynden carried him up to bed
before my father could find him like that. But you remember none of it, do you?" She looked down
angrily. "Do you?"
Is she drunk, or mad? "I was not born, my lady."
"You were not bom. But I was, so do not presume to tell what is true. I know what is true. You kissed
him!"
"He kissed me," Sansa insisted again. "I never wanted
"Be quiet, I haven't given you leave to speak. You enticed him, just as your mother did that night in
Riverrun, with her smiles and her dancing. You think I could forget? That was the night I stole up to his
bed to give him comfort. I bled, but it was the sweetest hurt. He told me he loved me then, but he called
me Cat, just before he fell back to sleep. Even so, I stayed with him until the sky began to lighten. Your
mother did not deserve him. She would not even give him her favor to wear when he fought Brandon
Stark. I would have given him my favor. I gave him everything. He is mine now. Not Catelyn's and not
yours."
All of Sansa's resolve had withered in the face of her aunt's onslaught. Lysa Arryn was frightening her as
much as Queen Cersei ever had. "He's yours, my lady," she said, trying to sound meek and contrite.
"May I have your leave to go?"
"You may not." Her aunt's breath smelled of wine. "If you were anyone else, I would banish you. Send
you down to Lord Nestor at the Gates of the Moon, or back to the Fingers. How would you like to
spend your life on that bleak shore, surrounded by slatterns and sheep pellets? That was what my father
meant for Petyr. Everyone thought it was because of that stupid duel with Brandon Stark, but that wasn't
so. Father said I ought to thank the gods that so great a lord as Jon Arryn was willing to take me soiled,
but I knew it was only for the swords. I had to marry Jon, or my father would have turned me out as he
did his brother, but it was Petyr I was meant for. I am telling you all this so you will understand how much
we love each other, how long we have suffered and dreamed of one another. We made a baby together,
a precious little baby." Lysa put her hands flat against her belly, as if the child was still there. "When they


stole him from me, I made a promise to myself that I would never let it happen again. Jon wished to send
my sweet Robert to Dragonstone, and that sot of a king would have given him to Cersei Lannister, but I
never let them ... no more than I'll let you steal my Petyr Littlefinger. Do you hear me, Alayne or Sansa or
whatever you call yourself? Do you hear what I am telling you?"
"Yes. I swear, I won't ever kiss him again, or ... or entice him." Sansa thought that was what her aunt
wanted to hear.
"So you admit it now? It was you, just as I thought. You are as wanton as your mother." Lysa grabbed
her by the wrist. "Come with me now. There is something I want to show you."
"You're hurting me." Sansa squirmed. "Please, Aunt Lysa, I haven't done anything. I swear it."
Her aunt ignored her protests. "Marillion!" she shouted. "I need you, Marillion! I need you!"
The singer had remained discreetly in the rear of the hall, but at Lady Arryn's shout he came at once.
"My lady?"
"Play us a song. Play 'The False and the Fair."'
Marillions fingers brushed the strings. "The lord he came a-riding upon a rainy day, hey-nonny,
hey-nonny, hey-nonny-hey..."
Lady Lysa pulled at Sansa's arm. It was either walk or be dragged, so she chose to walk, halfway down
the hall and between a pair of pillars, to a white weirwood door set in the marble wall. The door was
firmly closed, with three heavy bronze bars to hold it in place, but Sansa could hear the wind outside
worrying at its edges. When she saw the crescent moon carved in the wood, she planted her feet. "The
Moon Door." She tried to yank free. "Why are you showing me the Moon Door?"
"You squeak like a mouse now, but you were bold enough in the garden, weren't you? You were bold
enough in the snow."


"The lady sat a-sewing upon a rainy day," Marillion sang. "Heynonny, hey-nonny, hey-nonny-hey."
"Open the door," Lysa commanded. "Open it, I say. You will do it, or I'll send for my guards." She
shoved Sansa forward. "Your mother was brave, at least. Lift off the bars."
If I do as she says, she will let me go. Sansa grabbed one of the bronze bars, yanked it loose, and
tossed it down. The second bar clattered to the marble, then the third. She had barely touched the latch
when the heavy wooden door flew inward and slammed back against the wall with a bang. Snow had
piled up around the frame, and it all came blowing in at them, borne on a blast of cold air that left Sansa
shivering. She tried to step backward, but her aunt was behind her. Lysa seized her by the wrist and put
her other hand between her shoulder blades, propelling her forcefully toward the open door.
Beyond was white sky, falling snow, and nothing else.
"Look down," said Lady Lysa. "Look down."
She tried to wrench free, but her aunt's fingers were digging into her arm like claws. Lysa gave her
another shove, and Sansa shrieked. Her left foot broke through a crust of snow and knocked it loose.
There was nothing in front of her but empty air, and a waycastle six hundred feet below clinging to the
side of the mountain. "Don't!" Sansa screamed. "You're scaring me! " Behind her, Marillion was still
playing his woodharp and singing, "Hey-nonny, hey-nonny, hey-nonny-hey."
"Do you still want my leave to go? Do you?"
"No." Sansa planted her feet and tried to squirm backward, but her
aunt did not budge. "Not this way. Please..." She put a hand up, her fingers scrabbling at the doorframe,
but she could not get a grip, and her feet were sliding on the wet marble floor. Lady Lysa pressed her
forward inexorably. Her aunt outweighed her by three stone. "The lady lay a-kissing, upon a mound of
hay," Marillion was singing. Sansa twisted sideways, hysterical with fear, and one foot slipped out over
the void. She screamed. "Hey-nonny, hey-nonny, hey-nonny-hey." The wind flapped her skirts up and bit
at her bare legs with cold teeth. She could feel snowflakes melting on her cheeks. Sansa flailed, found
Lysa's thick auburn braid, and clutched it tight. "My hair!" her aunt shrieked. "Let go of my hair!" She
was shaking, sobbing. They teetered on the edge. Far off, she heard the guards pounding on the door


with their spears, demanding to be let in. Marillion broke off his song.
"Lysa! What's the meaning of this?" The shout cut through the sobs and heavy breathing. Footsteps
echoed down the High Hall. "Get back from there! Lysa, what are you doing?" The guards were still
beating at the door; Littlefinger had come in the back way, through the lords' entrance behind the dais.
As Lysa turned, her grip loosened enough for Sansa to rip free. She stumbled to her knees, where Petyr
Baelish saw her. He stopped suddenly. "Alayne. What is the trouble here?"
"Her." Lady Lysa grabbed a handful of Sansa's hair. "She's the trouble. She kissed you."
"Tell her, " Sansa begged. "Tell her we were just building a castle . . .
"Be quiet!" her aunt screamed. "I never gave you leave to speak. No one cares about your castle."
"She's a child, Lysa. Cat's daughter. What did you think you were doing?"
"I was going to marry her to Robert! She has no gratitude. No ... no decency. You are not hers to kiss.
Not hers! I was teaching her a lesson, that was all."
"I see." He stroked his chin. "I think she understands now. Isn't that so, Alayne? "
"Yes," sobbed Sansa. "I understand."
III don't want her here." Her aunt's eyes were shiny with tears. "Why did you bring her to the Vale,
Petyr? This isn't her place. She doesn't belong here."
"We'll send her away, then. Back to King's Landing, if you like." He took a step toward them. "Let her
up, now. Let her away from the door."


"NO!" Lysa gave Sansa's head another wrench. Snow eddied around them, making their skirts snap
noisily. "You can't want her. You can't. She's a stupid empty-headed little girl. She doesn't love you the
way I have. I've always loved you. I've proved it, haven't I?" Tears ran down
her aunt's puffy red face. "I gave you my maiden's gift. I would have given you a son too, but they
murdered him with moon tea, with tansy and mint and wormwood, a spoon of honey and a drop of
permyroyal. It wasn't me, I never knew, I only drank what Father gave me. . . "
"That's past and done, Lysa. Lord Hoster's dead, and his old maester as well." Littlefinger moved closer.
"Have you been at the wine again? You ought not to talk so much. We don't want Alayne to know more
than she should, do we? Or Marillion?"
Lady Lysa ignored that. "Cat never gave you anything. It was me who got you your first post, who made
Jon bring you to court so we could be close to one another. You promised me you would never forget
that."
"Nor have 1. We're together, just as you always wanted, just as we always planned. just let go of
Sansa's hair. . ."
"I won't! I saw you kissing in the snow. She's just like her mother. Catelyn kissed you in the godswood,
but she never meant it, she never wanted you. Why did you love her best? It was me, it was always
meeee!"
"I know, love." He took another step. "And I am here. All you need to do is take my hand, come on."
He held it out to her. "There's no cause for all these tears."
"Tears, tears, tears," she sobbed hysterically. "No need for tears ... but that's not what you said in King's
Landing. You told me to put the tears in Jon's wine, and I did. For Robert, and for us! And I wrote
Catelyn and told her the Lannisters had killed my lord husband, just as you said. That was so clever ...
you were always clever, I told Father that, I said Petyr's so clever, he'll rise high, he will, he will, and he's
sweet and gentle and I have his little baby in my belly ... Why did you kiss her? Why? We're together
now, we're together after so long, so very long, why would you want to kiss herrrrrr?"
"Lysa," Petyr sighed, "after all the storms we've suffered, you should trust me better. I swear, I shall
never leave your side again, for as long as we both shall live."
"Truly?" she asked, weeping. "Oh, truly?"
"Truly. Now unhand the girl and come give me a kiss."
Lysa threw herself into Littlefinger's arms, sobbing. As they hugged, Sansa crawled from the Moon
Door on hands and knees and wrapped her arms around the nearest pillar. She could feel her heart
pounding. There was snow in her hair and her right shoe was missing. It must have fallen. She shuddered,
and hugged the pillar tighter.
Littlefinger let Lysa sob against his chest for a moment, then put his hands on her arms and kissed her
lightly. "My sweet silly jealous wife," he said, chuckling. "I've only loved one woman, I promise you."


Lysa Arryn smiled tremulously. "Only one? Oh, Petyr, do you swear it? Only one?"
"Only Cat." He gave her a short, sharp shove.
Lysa stumbled backward, her feet slipping on the wet marble. And then she was gone. She never
screamed. For the longest time there was no sound but the wind.
Marillion gasped, "You ... you..."
The guards were shouting outside the door, pounding with the butts of their heavy spears. Lord Petyr
pulled Sansa to her feet. "You're not hurt?" When she shook her head, he said, "Run let my guards in,
then. Quick now, there's no time to lose. This singer's killed my lady wife."
Epilogue
The road up to Oldstones went twice around the hill before reaching the summit. Overgrown and stony,
it would have been slow going even in the best of times, and last night's snow had left it muddy as well.
Snow in autumn in the riverlands, it's unnatural, Merrett thought gloomily. It had not been much of a
snow, true; just enough to blanket the ground for a night. Most of it had started melting away as soon as
the sun came up. Still, Merrett took it for a bad omen. Between rains, floods, fire, and war, they had lost
two harvests and a good part of a third. An early winter would mean famine all across the riverlands. A
great many people would go hungry, and some of them would starve. Merrett only hoped he wouldn't be
one of them. I may, though. With my luck, I just may. I never did have any luck.
Beneath the castle ruins, the lower slopes of the hill were so thickly forested that half a hundred outlaws
could well have been lurking there. They could be watching me even now. Merrett glanced about, and
saw nothing but gorse, bracken, thistle, sedge, and blackberry bushes between the pines and grey-green
sentinels. Elsewhere skeletal elm and ash and scrub oaks choked the ground like weeds. He saw no
outlaws, but that meant little. Outlaws were better at hiding than honest men.
Merrett hated the woods, if truth be told, and he hated outlaws even more. "Outlaws stole my life," he
had been known to complain when in his cups. He was too often in his cups, his father said, often and
loudly. Too true, he thought ruefully. You needed some sort of distinction in the Twins, else they were
liable to forget you were alive, but a reputation as the biggest drinker in the castle had done little to
enhance his prospects,
he'd found. I once hoped to be the greatest knight who ever couched a lance. The gods took that away
from me. Why shouldn't I have a cup of wine from time to time? It helps my headaches. Besides, my wife
is a shrew, my father despises me, my children are worthless. What do I have to stay sober for?
He was sober now, though. Well, he'd had two horns of ale when he broke his fast, and a small cup of
red when he set out, but that was just to keep his head from pounding. Merrett could feel the headache
building behind his eyes, and he knew that if he gave it half a chance he would soon feel as if he had a
thunderstorm raging between his ears. Sometimes his headaches got so bad that it even hurt too much to
weep. Then all he could do was rest on his bed in a dark room with a damp cloth over his eyes, and
curse his luck and the nameless outlaw who had done this to him.


just thinking about it made him anxious. He could no wise afford a headache now. If I bring Petyr back
home safely, all my luck will change. He had the gold, all he needed to do was climb to the top of
Oldstones, meet the bloody outlaws in the ruined castle, and make the exchange. A simple ransom. Even
he could not muck it up ... unless he got a headache, one so bad that it left him unable to ride. He was
supposed to be at the ruins by sunset, not weeping in a huddle at the side of the road. Merrett rubbed
two fingers against his temple. Once more around the hill, and there I am. When the message had come
in and he had stepped forward to offer to carry the ransom, his father had squinted down and said, "You,
Merrett? " and started laughing through his nose, that hideous heh heh heh laugh of his. Merrett practically
had to beg before they'd give him the bloody bag of gold.
Something moved in the underbrush along the side of the road. Merrett reined up hard and reached for
his sword, but it was only a squirrel. "Stupid," he told himself, shoving the sword back in its scabbard
without ever having gotten it out. "Outlaws don't have tails. Bloody hell, Merrett, get hold of yourself."
His heart was thumping in his chest as if he were some green boy on his first campaign. As if this were the
kingswood and it was the old Brotherhood I was going to face, not the lightning lord's sorry lot of
brigands. For a moment he was tempted to trot right back down the hill and find the nearest alehouse.
That bag of gold would buy a lot of ale, enough for him to forget all about Petyr Pimple. Let them hang
him, he brought this on himself. It's no more than he deserves, wandering off with some bloody camp
follower like a stag in rut.
His head had begun to pound; soft now, but he knew it would get worse. Merrett rubbed the bridge of
his nose. He really had no right to think so ill of Petyr. I did the same myself when I was his age. In his
case all it got him was a pox, but still, he shouldn't condemn. Whores
did have charms, especially if you had a face like Petyr's. The poor lad had a wife, to be sure, but she
was half the problem. Not only was she twice his age, but she was bedding his brother Walder too, if the
talk was true. There was always lots of talk around the Twins, and only a little was ever true, but in this
case Merrett believed it. Black Walder was a man who took what he wanted, even his brother's wife.
He'd had Edwyn's wife too, that was common knowledge, Fair Walda had been known to slip into his
bed from time to time, and some even said he'd known the seventh Lady Frey a deal better than he
should have. Small wonder he refused to marry. Why buy a cow when there were udders all around
begging to be milked?
Cursing under his breath, Merrett jammed his heels into his horse's flanks and rode on up the hill. As
tempting as it was to drink the gold away, he knew that if he didn't come back with Petyr Pimple, he had
as well not come back at all.
Lord Walder would soon turn two-and-ninety. His ears had started to go, his eyes were almost gone,
and his gout was so bad that he had to be carried everywhere. He could not possibly last much longer, all
his sons agreed. And when he goes, everything will change, and not for the better. His father was
querulous and stubborn, with an iron will and a wasp's tongue, but he did believe in taking care of his
own. All of his own, even the ones who had displeased and disappointed him. Even the ones whose
names he can't remember, Once he was gone, though ...
When Ser Stevron had been heir, that was one thing. The old man had been grooming Stevron for sixty
years, and had pounded it into his head that blood was blood. But Stevron had died whilst campaigning
with the Young Wolf in the west - "of waiting, no doubt," Lame Lothar had quipped when the raven
brought them the news - and his sons and grandsons were a different sort of Frey. Stevron's son Ser
Ryman stood to inherit now; a thick-witted, stubborn, greedy man. And after Ryman came his own sons,
Edwyn and Black Walder, who were even worse. "Fortunately," Lame Lothar once said, "they hate each
other even more than they hate us."


Merrett wasn't certain that was fortunate at all, and for that matter Lothar himself might be more
dangerous than either of them. Lord Walder had ordered the slaughter of the Starks at Roslin's wedding,
but it had been Lame Lothar who had plotted it out with Roose Bolton, all the way down to which songs
would be played. Lothar was a very amusing fellow to get drunk with, but Merrett would never be so
foolish as to turn his back on him. In the Twins, you learned early that only full blood siblings could be
trusted, and them not very far.
It was like to be every son for himself when the old man died, and every daughter as well. The new Lord
of the Crossing would doubtless
keep on some of his uncles, nephews, and cousins at the Twins, the ones he happened to like or trust, or
more likely the ones he thought would prove useful to him. The rest of us he'll shove out to fend for
ourselves.
The prospect worried Merrett more than words could say. He would be forty in less than three years,
too old to take up the life of a hedge knight ... even if he'd been a knight, which as it happened he wasn't.
He had no land, no wealth of his own. He owned the clothes on his back but not much else, not even the
horse he was riding. He wasn't clever enough to be a maester, pious enough to be a septon, or savage
enough to be a sellsword. The gods gave me no gift but birth, and they stinted me there. What good was
it to be the son of a rich and powerful House if you were the ninth son? When you took grandsons and
great-grandsons into account, Merrett stood a better chance of being chosen High Septon than he did of
inheriting the Twins.
I have no luck, he thought bitterly. I have never had any bloody luck. He was a big man, broad around
the chest and shoulders if only of middling height. in the last ten years he had grown soft and fleshy, he
knew, but when he'd been younger Merrett had been almost as robust as Ser Hosteen, his eldest full
brother, who was commonly regarded as the strongest of Lord Walder Frey's brood. As a boy he'd
been packed off to Crakehall to serve his mother's family as a page. When old Lord Sumner had made
him a squire, everyone had assumed he would be Ser Merrett in no more than a few years, but the
outlaws of the Kingswood Brotherhood had pissed on those plans. While his fellow squire Jaime
Lannister was covering himself in glory, Merrett had first caught the pox from a camp follower, then
managed to get captured by a woman, the one called the White Fawn. Lord Sumner had ransomed him
back from the outlaws, but in the very next fight he'd been felled by a blow from a mace that had broken
his helm and left him insensible for a fortnight. Everyone gave him up for dead, they told him later.
Merrett hadn't died, but his fighting days were done. Even the lightest blow to his head brought on
blinding pain and reduced him to tears. Under these circumstances knighthood was out of the question,
Lord Sumner told him, not unkindly. He was sent back to the Twins to face Lord Walder's poisonous
disdain.
After that, Merrett's luck had only grown worse. His father had managed to make a good marriage for
him, somehow; he wed one of Lord Darry's daughters, back when the Darrys stood high in King Aerys's
favor. But it seemed as if he no sooner had deflowered his bride than Aerys lost his throne. Unlike the
Freys, the Darrys had been prominent Targaryen loyalists, which cost them half their lands, most of their
wealth, and almost all their power. As for his lady wife, she found him a great disappointment from the
first, and insisted on popping out nothing but girls
for years; three live ones, a stillbirth, and one that died in infancy before she finally produced a son. His
eldest daughter had turned out to be a slut, his second a glutton. When Ami was caught in the stables
with no fewer than three grooms, he'd been forced to marry her off to a bloody hedge knight. That


situation could not possibly get any worse, he'd thought.. . until Ser Pate decided he could win renown by
defeating Ser Gregor Clegane. Ami had come running back a widow, to Merrett's dismay and the
undoubted delight of every stablehand in the Twins.
Merrett had dared to hope that his luck was finally changing when Roose Bolton chose to wed his
WaIda instead of one of her slimmer, comelier cousins. The Bolton alliance was important for House
Frey and his daughter had helped secure it; he thought that must surely count for something. The old man
had soon disabused him. "He picked her because she's fat," Lord Walder said. "You think Bolton gave a
mummer's fart that she was your whelp? Think he sat about thinking, 'Heh, Merrett Muttonhead, that's
the very man I need for a good-father'? Your Walda's a sow in silk, that's why he picked her, and I'm
not like to thank you for it. We'd have had the same alliance at half the price if your little porkling put
down her spoon from time to time."
The final humiliation had been delivered with a smile, when Lame Lothar had summoned him to discuss
his role in Roslin's wedding. "We must each play our part, according to our gifts," his half-brother told
him. "You shall have one task and one task only, Merrett, but I believe you are well suited to it. I want
you to see to it that Greatjon Umber is so bloody drunk that he can hardly stand, let alone fight."
And even that I failed at. He'd cozened the huge northman into drinking enough wine to kill any three
normal men, yet after Roslin had been bedded the Greatjon still managed to snatch the sword of the first
man to accost him and break his arm in the snatching. It had taken eight of them to get him into chains,
and the effort had left two men wounded, one dead, and poor old Ser Leslyn Haigh short half a ear.
When he couldn't fight with his hands any longer, Umber had fought with his teeth.
Merrett paused a moment and closed his eyes. His head was throbbing like that bloody drum they'd
played at the wedding, and for a moment it was all he could do to stay in the saddle. I have to go on, he
told himself. If he could bring back Petyr Pimple, surely it would put him in Ser Ryman's good graces.
Petyr might be a whisker on the hapless side, but he wasn't as cold as Edwyn, nor as hot as Black
Walder. The boy will be grateful for my part, and his father will see that I'm loyal, a man worth having
about.
But only if he was there by sunset with the gold. Merrett glanced at the sky. Right on time, He needed
something to steady his hands. He pulled up the waterskin hung from his saddle, uncorked it, and took a
long swallow. The wine was thick and sweet, so dark it was almost black, but gods it tasted good.
The curtain wall of Oldstones had once encircled the brow of the hill like the crown on a king's head.
Only the foundation remained, and a few waist-high piles of crumbling stone spotted with lichen. Merrett
rode along the line of the wall until he came to the place where the gatehouse would have stood. The
ruins were more extensive here, and he had to dismount to lead his palfrey through them. In the west, the
sun had vanished behind a bank of low clouds. Gorse and bracken covered the slopes, and once inside
the vanished walls the weeds were chest high. Merrett loosened his sword in its scabbard and looked
about warily, but saw no outlaws. Could I have come on the wrong day? He stopped and rubbed his
temples with his thumbs, but that did nothing to ease the pressure behind his eyes. Seven bloody hells ...
From somewhere deep within the castle, faint music came drifting through the trees.
Merrett found himself shivering, despite his cloak. He pulled open his waterskin and had another drink of
wine. I could just get back on my horse, ride to Oldtown, and drink the gold away. No good ever came
from dealing with outlaws. That vile little bitch Wenda had burned a fawn into the cheek of his arse while
she had him captive. No wonder his wife despised him. I have to go through with this. Petyr Pimple might


be Lord of the Crossing one day, Edwyn has no sons and Black Walder's only got bastards. Petyr will
remember who came to get him. He took another swallow, corked the skin up, and led his palfrey
through broken stones, gorse, and thin wind-whipped trees, following the sounds to what had been the
castle ward.
Fallen leaves lay thick upon the ground, like soldiers after some great slaughter. A man in patched, faded
greens was sitting crosslegged atop a weathered stone sepulcher, fingering the strings of a woodharp.
The music was soft and sad. Merrett knew the song. High in the halls of the kings who are gone, fenny
would dance with her ghosts ...
"Get off there," Merrett said. "You're sitting on a king."
"Old Tristifer don't mind my bony arse. The Hammer of justice, they called him. Been a long while since
he heard any new songs." The outlaw hopped down. Trim and slim, he had a narrow face and foxy
features, but his mouth was so wide that his smile seemed to touch his ears. A few strands of thin brown
hair were blowing across his brow. He pushed them back with his free hand and said, "Do you
remember me, my lord?"
"No." Merrett frowned. "Why would I?"
"I sang at your daughter's wedding. And passing well, I thought. That Pate she married was a cousin.
We're all cousins in Sevenstreams. Didn't stop him from turning niggard when it was time to pay me." He
shrugged. "Why is it your lord father never has me play at the Twins? Don't I make enough noise for his
lordship? He likes it loud, I have been hearing."
"You bring the gold?" asked a harsher voice, behind him.
Merrett's throat was dry. Bloody outlaws, always hiding in the bushes. It had been the same in the
kingswood. You'd think you'd caught five of them, and ten more would spring from nowhere.
When he turned, they were all around him; an ill-favored gaggle of leathery old men and
smooth-cheeked lads younger than Petyr Pimple, the lot of them clad in roughspun rags, boiled leather,
and bits of dead men's armor. There was one woman with them, bundled up in a hooded cloak three
times too big for her. Merrett was too flustered to count them, but there seemed to be a dozen at the
least, maybe a score.
"I asked a question." The speaker was a big bearded man with crooked green teeth and a broken nose;
taller than Merrett, though not so heavy in the belly. A halffielm covered his head, a patched yellow cloak
his broad shoulders. "Where's our gold?"
"in my saddlebag. A hundred golden dragons." Merrett cleared his throat. "You'll get it when I see that
Petyr - "
A squat one-eyed outlaw strode forward before he could finish, reached into the saddlebag bold as you
please, and found the sack. Merrett started to grab him, then thought better of it. The outlaw opened the
drawstring, removed a coin, and bit it. "Tastes right." He hefted the sack. "Feels right too."
They're going to take the gold and keep Petyr too, Merrett thought in sudden panic. "That's the whole
ransom. All you asked for." His palms were sweating. He wiped them on his breeches. "Which one of
you is Beric Dondarrion? " Dondarrion had been a lord before he turned outlaw, he might still be a man


of honor.
"Why, that would be me," said the one-eyed man.
"You're a bloody liar, Jack," said the big bearded man in the yellow cloak. "It's my turn to be Lord
Beric."
"Does that mean I have to be Thoros?" The singer laughed. "My lord, sad to say, Lord Beric was
needed elsewhere. The times are troubled, and there are many battles to fight. But we'll sort you out just
as he would, have no fear."
Merrett had plenty of fear. His head was pounding too. Much more of this and he'd be sobbing. "You
have your gold," he said. "Give me my nephew, and I'll be gone." Petyr was actually more a great
half-nephew, but there was no need to go into that.
"He's in the godswood," said the man in the yellow cloak. "We'll take you to him. Notch, you hold his
horse."
Merrett handed over the bridle reluctantly. He did not see what other
choice he had. "My water skin," he heard himself say. "A swallow of wine, to settle my - "
"We don't drink with your sort," yellow cloak said curtly. "It's this way. Follow me."
Leaves crunched beneath their heels, and every step sent a spike of pain through Merrett's temple. They
walked in silence, the wind gusting around them. The last light of the setting sun was in his eyes as he
clambered over the mossy hummocks that were all that remained of the keep. Behind was the
godswood.
Petyr Pimple was hanging from the limb of an oak, a noose tight around his long thin neck. His eyes
bulged from a black face, staring down at Men rett accusingly. You came too late, they seemed to say.
But he hadn't. He hadn't! He had come when they told him. "You killed him," he croaked.
"Sharp as a blade, this one," said the one-eyed man.
An aurochs was thundering through Merrett's head. Mother have mercy, he thought. "I brought the
gold."
"That was good of you," said the singer amiably. "We'll see that it's put to good use."
Merrett turned away from Petyr. He could taste the bile in the back of his throat. "You ... you had no
right."
"We had a rope," said yellow cloak. "That's right enough."
Two of the outlaws seized Merrett's arms and bound them tight behind his back. He was too deep in
shock to struggle. "No," was all he could manage. "I only came to ransom Petyr. You said if you had the
gold by sunset he wouldn't be harmed..."
"Well," said the singer, "you've got us there, my lord. That was a lie of sorts, as it happens."


The one-eyed outlaw came forward with a long coil of hempen rope. He looped one end around
Merrett's neck, pulled it tight, and tied a hard knot under his ear. The other end he threw over the limb of
the oak. The big man in the yellow cloak caught it.
"What are you doing?" Merrett knew how stupid that sounded, but he could not believe what was
happening, even then. "You'd never dare hang a Frey."
Yellow cloak laughed. "That other one, the pimply boy, he said the same thing."
He doesn't mean it. He cannot mean it. "My father will pay you. I'm worth a good ransom, more than
Petyr, twice as much."
The singer sighed. "Lord Walder might be half-blind and gouty, but he's not so stupid as to snap at the
same bait twice. Next time he'll send a hundred swords instead of a hundred dragons, I fear."
"He will!" Merrett tried to sound stem, but his voice betrayed him. "He'll send a thousand swords, and
kill you all."
"He has to catch us first." The singer glanced up at poor Petyr. "And he can't hang us twice, now can
he?" He drew a melancholy air from the strings of his woodharp. "Here now, don't soil yourself. All you
need to do is answer me a question, and I'll tell them to let you go."
Merrett would tell them anything if it meant his life. "What do you want to know? I'll tell you true, I
swear it."
The outlaw gave him an encouraging smile. "Well, as it happens, we're looking for a dog that ran away."
"A dog?" Merrett was lost. "What kind of dog?"
"He answers to the name Sandor Clegane. Thoros says he was making for the Twins. We found the
ferrymen who took him across the Trident, and the poor sod he robbed on the kingsroad. Did you see
him at the wedding, perchance?"
"The Red Wedding?" Merrett's skull felt as if it were about to split, but he did his best to recall. There
had been so much confusion, but surely someone would have mentioned Joffrey's dog sniffing round the
Twins. "He wasn't in the castle. Not at the main feast ... he might have been at the bastard feast, or in the
camps, but ... no, someone would have said . . . "
"He would have had a child with him," said the singer. "A skinny girl, about ten. Or perhaps a boy the
same age."
"I don't think so," said Merrett. "Not that I knew."
"No? Ah, that's a pity. Well, up you go."
"No," Merrett squealed loudly. "No, don't, I gave you your answer, you said you'd let me go."
"Seems to me that what I said was I'd tell them to let you go." The singer looked at yellow cloak. "Lem,
let him go."
"Go bugger yourself," the big outlaw replied brusquely.


The singer gave Merrett a helpless shrug and began to play, "The Day They Hanged Black Robin."
"Please." The last of Merrett's courage was running down his leg. "I've done you no harm. I brought the
gold, the way you said. I answered your question. I have children."
"That Young Wolf never will," said the one-eyed outlaw.
Merrett could hardly think for the pounding in his head. "He shamed us, the whole realm was laughing,
we had to cleanse the stain on our honor." His father had said all that and more.
"Maybe so. What do a bunch o' bloody peasants know about a lord's honor?" Yellow cloak wrapped
the end of the rope around his hand three times. "We know some about murder, though."
"Not murder." His voice was shrill. "It was vengeance, we had a right to our vengeance. It was war.
Aegon, we called him linglebell, a poor lackwit never hurt anyone, Lady Stark cut his throat. We lost half
a
hundred men in the camps. Ser Garse Goodbrook, Kyra's husband, and Ser Tytos, Jared's son . . .
someone smashed his head in with an axe ... Stark's direwolf killed four of our wolfhounds and tore the
kennelmaster's arm off his shoulder, even after we'd filled him full of quarrels . . . "
"So you sewed his head on Robb Stark's neck after both o' them were dead," said yellow cloak.
"My father did that. All I did was drink. You wouldn't kill a man for drinking." Merrett remembered
something then, something that might be the saving of him. "They say Lord Beric always gives a man a
trial, that he won't kill a man unless something's proved against him. You can't prove anything against me.
The Red Wedding was my father's work, and Ryman's and Lord Bolton's. Lothar rigged the tents to
collapse and put the crossbowmen in the gallery with the musicians, Bastard Walder led the attack on the
camps ... they're the ones you want, not me, I only drank some wine ... you have no witness."
"As it happens, you're wrong there." The singer turned to the hooded woman. "Milady?"
The outlaws parted as she came forward, saying no word. When she lowered her hood, something
tightened inside Merrett's chest, and for a moment he could not breathe. No. No, I saw her die. She was
dead for a day and night before they stripped her naked and threw her body in the river. Raymund
opened her throat from ear to ear. She was dead.
Her cloak and collar hid the gash his brother's blade had made, but her face was even worse than he
remembered. The flesh had gone pudding soft in the water and turned the color of curdled milk. Half her
hair was gone and the rest had turned as white and brittle as a crone's. Beneath her ravaged scalp, her
face was shredded skin and black blood where she had raked herself with her nails. But her eyes were
the most terrible thing. Her eyes saw him, and they hated.
"She don't speak," said the big man in the yellow cloak. "You bloody bastards cut her throat too deep
for that. But she remembers." He turned to the dead woman and said, "What do you say, m'lady? Was
he part of it?"
Lady Catelyn's eyes never left him. She nodded.
Merrett Frey opened his mouth to plead, but the noose choked off his words. His feet left the ground,


the rope cutting deep into the soft flesh beneath his chin. Up into the air he jerked, kicking and twisting,
up and up and up.
Appendix
The Kings and Their Courts
THE KING ON THE IRON THRONE
JOFFREY BARATHEON, the First of His Name, a boy of thirteen years, the eldest son of King
Robert I Baratheon and Queen Cersei of House
Lannister,
- his mother, QUEEN CERSEI, of House Lannister, Queen Regent and Protector of the Realm,
- Cersei's sworn swords:
- SER OSFRYD KETTLEBLACK, younger brother to Ser Osmund Kettleblack
of the Kingsguard,
- SER OSNEY KETTLEBLACK, youngest brother of Ser Osmund and Ser
Osfryd,
- his sister, PRINCESS MYRCELLA, a girl of nine, a ward of Prince Doran Martell at Sunspear,
- his brother, PRINCE TOMMEN, a boy of eight, next heir to the Iron Throne,
- his grandfather, TYWIN LANNISTER, Lord of Casterly Rock, Warden of the West, and Hand of
the King,
- his uncles and cousins, paternal,
- his father's brother, STANNIS BARATHEON, rebel Lord of Dragonstone, styling himself
King Stannis the First,
- Stannis's daughter, SHIREEN, a girl of eleven,
- his father's brother, (RENLY BARATHEON), rebel Lord of Storm's End, murdered in the
midst of his army,


- his grandmother's brother, SER ELDON ESTERMONT,
- Ser Eldon's son, SER AEMON ESTERMONT,
- Ser Aemon's son, SER ALYN ESTERMONT,
- his uncles and cousins, maternal,
-his mother's brother, SER JAIME LANNISTER, called THE KINGSLAYER, a captive at
Riverrun,
-his mother's brother, TYRION LANNISTER, called THE IMP, a dwarf, wounded in the
Battle of the Blackwater,
- Tyrion's squire, PODRICK PAYNE,
- Tyrion's captain of guards, SER BRONN OF THE BLACKWATER, a former
sellsword,
- Tyrion's concubine, SHAE, a camp follower now serving as bedmaid to Lollys
Stokeworth,
- his grandfather's brother, SER KEVAN LANNISTER,
- Ser Kevan's son, SER LANCEL LANNISTER, formerly squire to King Robert,
wounded in the Battle of the Blackwater, near death,
-his grandfather's brother, ITYGETT LANNISTER), died of a POX,
- Tygett's son, TYREK LANNISTER, a squire, missing since the great riot,
- Tyrek's infant wife, LADY ERMESANDE HAYFORD,
-his baseborn siblings, King Robert's bastards:
-MYA STONE, a maid of nineteen, in the service of Lord Nestor Royce, of the Gates of the
Moon,
-GENDRY, an apprentice smith, a fugitive in the riverlands; and ignorant of his heritage,
-EDRIC STORM, King Robert's only acknowledged bastard son, a ward of his uncle Stannis
on Dragonstone,
-his Kingsguard:
-SER JAIME LANNISTER, Lord Commander,
-SER MERYN TRANT,
-SER BALON SWANN,


-SER OSMUND KETTLEBLACK,
-SER LORAS TYRELL, the Knight of Flowers,
-SER ARYS OAKHEART,
-his small council:
-LORD TYWIN LANNISTER, Hand of the King,
-SER KEVAN LANNISTER, master of laws,
-LORD PETYR BAELISH, called LITTLEFINGER, master of coin,
-VARYS, a eunuch, called THE SPIDER, master of whisperers,
-LORD MACE TYRELL, master of ships,
-GRAND MAESTER PYCELLE,
-his court and retainers:
-SER ILYN PAYNE, the King's Justice, a headsman,
-LORD HALLYNE THE PYROMANCER, a Wisdom of the Guild of Alchemists,
-MOON BOY, a jester and fool,
-ORMOND OF OLDTOWN, the royal harper and bard,
-DONTOS HOLLARD, a fool and a drunkard, formerly a knight called SER DONTOS
THE RED,
-ALABHAR XHO, Prince of the Red Flower Vale, an exile from the Summer Isles,
-LADY TANDA STOKEWORTH,
- her daughter, FALYSE, wed to Ser Balman Byrch,
- her daughter, LOLLYS, thirty-four, unwed, and soft of wits, with child after being
raped,
- her healer and counselor, MAESTER FRENKEN, LORD GYLES ROSBY, a
sickly old man,
-SER TALLAD, a promising young knight,
-LORD MORROS SLYNT, a squire, eldest son of the former Commander of the City
Watch,
- JOTHOS SLYNT, his younger brother, a squire,


- DANOS SLYNT, younger still, a page,
-SER BOROS BLOUNT, a former knight of the Kingsguard, dismissed for cowardice by
Queen Cersei,
-OSMYN PECKLEDON, a squire, and a hero of the Battle of the Blackwater,
-SER PHILIP FOOTE, made Lord of the Marches for his valor during the Battle of the
Blackwater,
-SER LOTHOR BRUNE, named LOTHOR APPLE-EATER for his deeds during the Battle
of the Blackwater, a former freerider in service to Lord Baelish,
other lords and knights at King's Landing:
-MATHIS ROWAN, Lord of Goldengrove,
-PAXTER REDWYNE, Lord of the Arbor,
- Lord Paxter's twin sons, SER HORAS and SER HOBBER, mocked as
HORROR and SLOBBER,
- Lord Redwyne's healer, MAESTER BALLABAR, ARDRIAN CELTIGAR, the
Lord of Claw Isle,
-LORD ALESANDER STAEDMON, called PENNYLOVER,
-SER BONIFER HASTY, called THE GOOD, a famed knight, SER DONNEL SWANN,
heir to Stonehelm,
-SER RONNET CONNINGTON, called RED RONNET, the Knight of Griffin's Roost,
-AURANE WATERS, the Bastard of Driftmark,
-SER DERMOT OF THE RAINWOOD, a famed knight,
-SER TIMON SCRAPESWORD, a famed knight,
the people of King's Landing:
- the City Watch (the "gold cloaks"),
- (SER JACELYN BYWATER, called IRONHAND), Commander of the City
Watch, slain by his own men during the Battle of the Blackwater,
- SER ADDAM MARBRAND, Commander of the City Watch, Ser jacelyn's


successor,
- CHATAYA, owner of an expensive brothel,
- ALAYAYA, her daughter,
- DANCY, MAREI, JAYDE, Chataya's girls,
- TOBHO MOTT, a master armorer,
- IRONBELLY, a blacksmith,
- HAMISH THE HARPER, a famed singer,
- COLLIO QUAYNIS, a Tyroshi singer,
- BETHANY FAIR-FINGERS, a woman singer,
- ALARIC OF EYSEN, a singer, far-traveled,
- GALYEON OF CUY, a singer notorious for the length of his songs,
- SYMON SILVER TONGUE, a singer.
King Joffrey's banner shows the crowned stag of Baratheon, black on gold, and the lion of Lannister,
gold on crimson, combatant.
THE KING IN THE NORTH
KING OF THE TRIDENT
ROBB STARK, Lord of Winterfell, King in the North, and King of the Trident, the eldest son of
Eddark Stark, Lord of Winterfell, and Lady Catelyn. of House Tully,
- his direwolf, GREY WIND,
- his mother, LADY CATELYN, of House Tully, widow of Lord Eddard Stark,
- his siblings:
- his sister, PRINCESS SANSA, a maid of twelve, a captive in King's Landing,
- Sansa's direwolf, (LADY), killed at Castle Darry,


- his sister, PRINCESS ARYA, a girl of ten, missing and presumed dead,
- Arya's direwolf, NYMERIA, lost near the Trident,
- his brother, PRINCE BRANDON, called BRAN, heir to the north, a boy of nine, believed
dead,
- Bran's direwolf, SUMMER, -
Bran companions and protectors:
- MEERA REED, a maid of sixteen, daughter of Lord Howland Reed of
Greywater Watch,
- JOJEN REED, her brother, thirteen,
- HODOR, a simpleminded stableboy, seven feet tall,
- his brother, PRINCE RICKON, a boy of four, believed dead,
- Rickon's direwolf, SHAGGYDOG,
- Rickon's companion and protector:
- OSHA, a wildling captive who served as a scullion at Winterfell,
- his half-brother, JON SNOW, a Sworn Brother of the Night's Watch,
- Jon's direwolf, GHOST,
-his uncles and aunts, paternal:
-his father's elder brother, (BRANDON STARK), slain at the command of King Aerys II
Targaryen,
-his father's sister, (LYANNA STARK), died in the Mountains of Dome during Robert's
Rebellion,
-his father's younger brother, BENJEN STARK, a man of the Night's Watch, lost beyond the
Wall,
-his uncles, aunts, and cousins, maternal:
-his mother's younger sister, LYSA ARRYN, Lady of the Eyrie and widow of Lord Jon
Arryn,


- their son, ROBERT ARRYN, Lord of the Eyrie,
-his mother's younger brother, SER EDMURE TULLY, heir to Riverrun,
-his grandfather's brother, SER BRYNDEN TULLY, called THE BLACKFISH,
-his sworn swords and companions:
-his squire, OLYVAR FREY,
-SER WENDEL MANDERLY, second son to the Lord of White Harbor,
-PATREK MALLISTER, heir to Seagard,
-DACEY MORMONT, eldest daughter of Lady Maege Mormont and heir to Bear Island,
-JON UMBER, called THE SMALLJON, heir to Last Hearth,
-DONNEL LOCKE, OWEN NORREY, ROBIN FLINT, northmen,
his lords bannermen, captains and commanders: (with Robb's army in the Westerlands)
-SER BRYNDEN TULLY, the BLACKFISH, commanding the scouts and outriders,
-JON UMBER, called THE GREATJON, commanding the van,
-RICKARD KARSTARK, Lord of Karhold,
-GALBART GLOVER, Master of Deepwood Motte,
-MAEGE MORMONT, Lady of Bear Island,
-(SER STEVRON FREY), eldest son of Lord Walder Frey and heir to the Twins, died at
Oxcross,
- Ser Stevron's eldest son, SER RYMAN FREY,
- Ser Ryman's son, BLACK WALDER FREY, MARTYN RIVERS, a
bastard son of Lord Walder Frey,
(with Roose Bolton's host at Harrengal),
-ROOSE BOLTON, Lord of the Dreadfort,
-SER AENYS FREY, SER JARED FREY, SER HOSTEEN FREY, SER DANWELL


FREY
- their bastard half-brother, RONEL RIVERS, SER WYLIS MANDERLY, heir
to White Harbor,
- SER KYLE CONDON, a knight in his service, RONNEL STOUT,
- VARGO HOAT of the Free City of Qohor, captain of a sellsword company, the Brave
Companions,
- his lieutenant, URSWYCK called THE FAITHFUL,
- his lieutenant, SEPTON UTT,
- TIMEON OF DORNE, RORGE, IGGO, FAT ZOLLO, BITER, TOGG JOTH of Ibben,
PYG, THREE TOES, his men,
- QYBURN, a chainless maester and sometime necromancer, his healer,
(with the northern army attacking Duskendale)
-ROBETT GLOVER, of Deepwood Motte,
-SER HEIMAN TALLHART, of Torrhen's Square,
-HARRION KARSTARK, sole surviving son of Lord Rickard Karstark, and heir to
Karhold,
(traveling north with Lord Eddard's bones)
-HALLIS MOLLEN, captain of guards for Winterfell,
-JACKS, QUENT, SHADD, guardsmen,
-his lord bannermen and castellans, in the north:
-WYMAN MANDERLY, Lord of White Harbor,
-HOWLAND REED, Lord of Greywater Watch, a crannogman,
-MORS UMBER, called CROWFOOD, and HOTHER UMBER, called WHORESBANE,
uncles to Greatjon Umber, joint castellans at the Last Hearth,
-LYESSA FLINT, Lady of Widow's Watch,


-ONDREW LOCKE, Lord of Oldcastle, an old man,
(CLEY CERWYN), Lord of Cerwyn, a boy of fourteen, killed in battle at Winterfell,
- his sister, JONELLE CERWYN, a maid of two-and-thirty, now the Lady of
Cerwyn,
- (LEOBALD TALLHART), younger brother to Ser Helman, castellan at Torrhen's Square,
killed in battle at Winterfell,
- Leobald's wife, BERENA of House Hornwood,
- Leobald's son, BRANDON, a boy of fourteen,
- Leobald's son, BEREN, a boy of ten,
- Ser Helman's son, IBENFRED), killed by ironmen on the Stony Shore,
- Ser Helman's daughter, EDDARA, a girl of nine, heir to Torrhen's Square,
- LADY SYBELLE, wife to Robett Glover, a captive of Asha Greyjoy at Deepwood Motte,
- Robett's son, GAWEN, three, rightful heir to Deepwood Motte, a captive of
Asha Greyjoy,
- Robett's daughter, ERENA, a babe of one, a captive of Asha Greyjoy at
Deepwood Motte,
- LARENCE SNOW, a bastard son of Lord Hornwood, and ward of Galbart
Glover, thirteen, a captive of Asha Greyjoy at Deepwood Motte.
The banner of the King in the North remains as it has for thousands of years: the grey direwolf of the
Starks of Winterfell, running across an ice-white field.
THE KING IN THE NARROW SEA
STANNIS BARATHEON, the First of His Name, second son of Lord Steffon Baratheon and Lady
Cassana of House Estermont, formerly Lord of Dragonstone,
- his wife, QUEEN SELYSE of House Florent,
- PRINCESS SHIREEN, their daughter, a girl of eleven,
- PATCHFACE, her lackwit fool,


- his baseborn nephew, EDRIC STORM, a boy of twelve, bastard son of King Robert by Delena
Florent,
- his squires, DEVAN SEAWORTH and BRYEN FARRING,
- his court and retainers:
- LORD ALESTER FLORENT, Lord of Brightwater Keep and Hand of the King, the
queen's uncle,
- SER AXELL FLORENT, castellan of Dragonstone and leader of the queen's men, the
queen's uncle,
- LADY MELISANDRE OF ASSHAI, called THE RED WOMAN, priestess of R'hllor, the
Lord of Light and God of Flame and Shadow,
- MAESTER PYLOS, healer, tutor, counselor,
- SER DAVOS SEAWORTH, called THE ONION KNIGHT and sometimes
SHORTHAND, once a smuggler,
- Davos's wife, LADY MARYA, a carpenter's daughter,
- their seven sons:
- (DALE), lost on the Blackwater,
- (ALLARD), lost on the Blackwater,
- (MATTHOS), lost on the Blackwater,
- (MARIC), lost on the Blackwater,
- DEVAN, squire to King Stannis,
- STANNIS, a boy of nine years,
- STEFFON, a boy of six years,
-SALLADHOR SAAN, of the Free City of Lys, styling himself Prince of the Narrow Sea and
Lord of Blackwater Bay, master of the Valyrian and a fleet of sister galleys,
- MEIZO MAHR, a eunuch in his hire,
- KHORANE SATHMANTES, captain of his galley Shayala's Dance, "PORRIDGE" and
"LAMPREY," two gaolers,


- his lords bannermen,
-MONTERYS VELARYON, Lord of the Tides and Master of Driftmark, a boy of six,
-DURAM. BAR EMMON, Lord of Sharp Point, a boy of fifteen years,
-SER GILBERT FARRING, castellan of Storm's End,
- LORD ELWOOD MEADOWS, Ser Gilbert's second,
- MAESTER JURNE, Ser Gilbert's counselor and healer,
-LORD LUCOS CHYTTERING, called LITTLE LUCOS, a youth of sixteen,
-LESTER MORRIGEN, Lord of Crows Nest,
- his knights and sworn swords,
-SER LOMAS ESTERMONT, the king's maternal uncle,
- his son, SER ANDREW ESTERMONT,
-SER ROLLAND STORM, called THE BASTARD OF NIGHTSONG, a baseborn son of
the late Lord Bryen Caron,
-SER PARMEN CRANE, called PARMEN THE PURPLE, held captive at Highgarden,
-SER ERREN FLORENT, younger brother to Queen Selyse, held captive at Highgarden,
-SER GERALD GOWER,
-SER TRISTON OF TALLY HILL, formerly in service to Lord Guncer Sunglass,
-LEVVYS, called THE FISHWIFE, OMER BLACKBERRY.
King Stannis has taken for his banner the fiery heart of the Lord of Light: a red heart surrounded by
orange flames upon a yellow field. Within the heart is the crowned stag of House Baratheon, in black.
THE QUEEN ACROSS THE WATER
DAENERYS TARGARYEN, the First of Her Name, Khaleesi of the Dothraki, called DAENERYS


STORMBORN, the UNBURNT, MOTHER OF DRAGONS, sole surviving heir of Aerys II
Targaryen, widow of Khal Drogo of the Dothraki,
- her growing dragons, DROGON, VISERION, RHAEGAL,
- her Queensguard:
- SER JORAH MORMONT, formerly Lord of Bear Island, exiled for slaving,
- JHOGO, ko and bloodrider, the whip,
- AGGO, ko and bloodrider, the bow,
- RAKHARO, ko and bloodrider, the arakh,
- STRONG BELWAS, a former eunuch slave from the fighting pits of Meereen,
- his aged squire, ARSTAN called WHITEBEARD, a man of Westeros,
- her handmaids:
- IRRI, a Dothraki girl, fifteen,
- JHIQUI, a Dothraki girl, fourteen,
- GROLEO, captain of the great cog Balerion, a Pentoshi seafarer in the hire of Illyrio Mopatis,
- her late kin:
- (RHAEGAR), her brother, Prince of Dragonstone and heir to the Iron Throne, slain by
Robert Baratheon on the Trident,
- (RHAENYS), Rhaegar's daughter by Elia of Dome, murdered during the Sack of King's
Landing,
- (AEGON), Rhaegar's son by Elia of Dome, murdered during the Sack of King's Landing,
- (VISERYS), her brother, styling himself King Viserys, the Third of His Name, called THE
BEGGAR KING, slain in Vaes Dothrak by Khal Drogo, DROGO1, her husband, a great khal of the
Dothraki, never defeated in battle, died of a wound,
- (RHAEGO), her stillborn son by Khal Drogo, slain in the womb by Mirri Maz Duur,
her known enemies:


-KHAL PONO, once ko to Drogo,
-KHAL JHAQO, once ko to Drogo,
- MAGGO, his bloodrider, THE UNDYING OF QARTH, a band of warlocks,
- PYAT PREE, a Qartheen warlock, THE SORROWFUL MEN, a guild of Qartheen
assassins,
her uncertain allies, past and present:
-XARO XHOAN DAXOS, a merchant prince of Qarth,
-QUAITHE, a masked shadowbinder from Asshai,
-LLYRIO MOPATIS, a magister of the Free City of Pentos, who brokered her marriage to
Khal Drogo,
in Astapor:
-KRAZNYS MO NAKLOZ, a wealthy slave trader,
- his slave, MISSANDEI, a girl of ten, of the Peaceful People of Naath,
-GRAZDAN MO ULLHOR, an old slave trader, very rich,
- his slave, CLEON, a butcher and cook,
-GREY WORM, an eunuch of the Unsullied,
in Yunkai:
-GRAZDAN MO ERAZ, envoy and nobleman,
-MERO OF BRAAVOS, called THE TITAN'S BASTARD, captain of the
Second Sons, a free company,
- BROWN BEN PLUMM, a sergeant in the Second Sons, a sellsword of dubious
descent,
-PRENDAHL NA GHEZN, a Ghiscari sellsword, captain of the Stormcrows, a
free company,
-SALLOR THE BALD, a Qartheen sellsword, captain of the Stormcrows,


- DAARIO NAHARIS, a flamboyant Tyroshi sellsword, captain of the
Stormcrows,
in Meereen:
- OZNAK ZO PAHL, a hero of the city.
The banner of Daenerys Targaryen is the banner of Aegon the Conqueror and the dynasty he
established: a three-headed dragon, red on black.
KING OF THE ISLES AND THE NORTH
BALON GREYJOY, the Ninth of His Name Since the Grey King, styling himself King of the Iron
Islands and the North, King of Salt and Rock, Son of the Sea Wind, and Lord Reaper of Pyke,
- his wife, QUEEN ALANNYS, of House Harlaw,
- their children:
- (RODRIK), their eldest son, slain at Seagard during Greyjoy's Rebellion,
- (MARON), their second son, slain at Pyke during Greyjoy's Rebellion,
- ASHA, their daughter, captain of the Black Wind and conqueror of Deepwood Motte,
- THEON, their youngest son, captain of the Sea Bitch and briefly Prince of Winterfell,
- Theon's squire, WEX PYKE, bastard son of Lord Botley's half-brother, a mute
lad of twelve,
- Theon's crew, the men of the Sea Bitch:
- URZEN, MARON BOTLEY called FISHWHISKERS, STYGG,
GEVIN HARLAW, CADWYLE,
- his brothers:
- EURON, called Crow's Eye, captain of the Silence, a notorious outlaw, pirate, and raider,


- VICTARION, Lord Captain of the Iron Fleet, master of the Iron Victory
- AERON, called DAMPHAIR, a priest of the Drowned God,
his household on Pyke:
- NLkESTER WENDAMYR, healer and counselor,
- HELYA, keeper of the castle,
his warriors and sworn swords:
- DAGMER called CLEFTJAW, captain of Foamdrinker,
- BLUETOOTH, a longship captain,
- ULLER, SKYTE, oarsmen and warriors,
- ANDRIK THE UNSMILING, a giant of a man,
- QARL, called QARL THE MAID, beardless but deadly,
people of Lordsport:
- OTTER GIMPKNEE, innkeeper and whoremonger,
- SIGRIN, a shipwright,
his lords bannermen:
- SAWANE BOTLEY, Lord of Lordsport, on Pyke,
- LORD WYNCH, of Iron Holt, on Pyke,
- STONEHOUSE, DRUMM, and GOODBROTHER of Old Wyk,
- LORD GOODBROTHER, SPARR, LORD MERLYN, and LORD FARWYND of Great
Wyk,
- LORD HARLAW, of Harlaw, - VOLMARK, MYRE, STONETREE, and
KENNING, of Harlaw,
- ORKWOOD and TAWNEY of Orkmont,


- LORD BLACKTYDE of Blacktyde,
- LORD SALTCLIFFE and LORD SUNDERLY of Saltcliffe.
OTHER HOUSES GREAT AND SMALL
HOUSE ARRYN
The Arryns are descended from the Kings of Mountain and Vale, one of the oldest and purest lines of
Andal nobility. House Arryn has taken no part in the War of the Five Kings, holding back its strength to
protect the Vale of Arryn. The Arryn sigil is the moon-and-falcon, white, upon a sky-blue field. The
Arryn words are As High As Honor.
ROBERT ARRYN, Lord of the Eyrie, Defender of the Vale, Warden of
the East, a sickly boy of eight years, - his mother, LADY LYSA, of House Tully, third wife and widow
of Lord Jon Arryn, and sister to Catelyn Stark,
- their household:
- MARILLION, a handsome young singer, much favored by Lady Lysa,
- MAESTER COLEMON, counselor, healer, and tutor,
- SER MARWYN BELMORE, captain of guards,
- MORD, a brutal gaoler,
- his lords bannermen, knights, and retainers:
- LORD NESTOR ROYCE, High Steward of the Vale and castellan of the Gates of the
Moon, of the junior branch of House Royce,
- Lord Nestor's son, SER ALBAR,
- Lord Nestor's daughter, MYRANDA,
- MYA STONE, a bastard girl in his service, natural daughter of King Robert I Baratheon,
- LORD YOHN ROYCE, called BRONZE YOHN, Lord of Runestone, of the senior branch
of House Royce, cousin to Lord Nestor,
- Lord Yohn's eldest son, SER ANDAR,


- Lord Yohn's second son, ISER ROBARI, a knight of Renly Baratheon's Rainbow
Guard, slain at Storm's End by Ser Loras Tyrell,
- Lord Yohn's youngest son, (SER WAYMAR), a man of the Night's Watch, lost
beyond the Wall,
- SER LYN CORBRAY, a suitor to Lady Lysa,
- MYCHEL REDFORT, his squire,
- LADY ANYA WAYNWOOD,
- Lady Anya's eldest son and heir, SER MORTON, a suitor to Lady Lysa,
- Lady Anya's second son, SER DONNEL, the Knight of the Gate,
- EON HUNTER, Lord of Longbow Hall, an old man, and a suitor to Lady Lysa,
- HORTON REDFORT, Lord of Redfort.
HOUSE FLORENT
The Florents of Brightwater Keep are Tyrell bannermen, despite a superior claim to Highgarden by
virtue of a blood tie to House Gardener, the old Kings of the Reach. At the outbreak of the War of the
Five Kings, Lord Alester Florent followed the Tyrells in declaring for King Renly, but his brother Ser
Axell chose King Stannis, whom he had served for years as castellan of Dragonstone. Their niece Selyse
was and is King Stannis's queen. When Renly died at Storm's End, the Florents went over to Stannis
with all their strength, the first of Renly's bannermen to do so. The sigil of House Florent shows a fox
head in a circle of flowers.
ALESTER FLORENT, Lord of Brightwater,
- his wife, LADY MELARA, of House Crane,
- their children:
- ALEKYNE, heir to Brightwater,
- MELESSA, wed to Lord Randyll Tarly,
- RHEA, wed to Lord Leyton Hightower,


- his siblings:
- SER AXELL, castellan of Dragonstone,
- (SER RYAM), died in a fall from a horse,
- Ser Ryam's daughter, QUEEN SELYSE, wed to King Stannis Baratheon,
- Ser Ryam's son, (SER IMRY), commanding Stannis Baratheon's fleet on the
Blackwater, lost with the Fury,
- Ser Ryam's second son, SER ERREN, held captive at Highgarden,
- SER COLIN,
- Ser Colin's daughter, DELENA, wed to SER HOSMAN NORCROSS,
- Delena's son, EDRIC STORM, a bastard of King Robert I Baratheon,
twelve years of age,
- Delena's son, ALESTIR NORCROSS, eight,
- Delena's son, RENLY NORCROSS, a boy of two,
- Ser Colin's son, MAESTER OMER, in service at Old Oak,
- Ser Colin's son, MERRELL, a squire on the Arbor,
- his sister, RYLENE, wed to Ser Rycherd Crane.
HOUSE FREY
Powerful, wealthy, and numerous, the Freys are bannermen to House Tully, but they have not always
been diligent in their duty. When Robert Baratheon met Rhaegar Targaryen on the Trident, the Freys did
not arrive until the battle was done, and thereafter Lord Hoster Tully always called Lord Walder "the
Late Lord Frey." It is also said of Walder Frey that he is the only lord in the Seven Kingdoms who could
field an army out of his breeches.
At the onset of the War of the Five Kings, Robb Stark won Lord Walder's allegiance by pledging to
wed one of his daughters or granddaughters. Two of Lord Walder's grandsons were sent to Winterfell to
be fostered.
WALDER FREY, Lord of the Crossing,


by his first wife, (LADY PERRA, of House Royce):
-(SER STEVRON), their eldest son, died after the Battle of Oxcross, - m. (Corenna Swann,
died of a wasting illness), -Stevron's eldest son, SER RYMAN, heir to the Twins,
- Ryman's son, EDWYN, wed to janyce Hunter,
- Edwyn's daughter, WALDA, a girl of eight,
- Ryman's son, WALDER, called BLACK WALDER,
- Ryman's son, PETYR, called PETYR PIMPLE, - m. Mylenda Caron,
- Petyr's daughter, PERRA, a girl of five, - m. (Jeyne Lydden,
died in a fall from a horse),
-Stevron's son, AEGON, a halfwit called JINGLEBELL,
-Stevron's daughter, IMAEGELLE, died in childbed), m. Ser Dafyn Vance,
- Maegelle's daughter, MARIANNE, a maiden,
- Maegelle's son, WALDER VANCE, a squire,
- Maegelle's son, PATREK VANCE, - m. (Marsella Waynwood, died
in childbed),
-Stevron's son, WALTON, m. Deana Hardyng,
- Walton's son, STEFFON, called THE SWEET, Walton's daughter,
WALDA, called FAIR WALDA,
- Walton's son, BRYAN, a squire, SER EMMON, m. Genna of House
Lannister,
- Emmon's son, SER CLEOS, m. Jeyne Darry,
- Cleos's son, TYWIN, a squire of eleven,
- Cleos's son, WILLEM, a page at Ashemark,
nine,
- Emmon's son, SER LYONEL, m. Melesa Crakehall,
- Emmon's son, TION, a captive at Riverrun,
- Emmon's son, WALDER, called RED WALDER, fourteen,
a squire at Casterly Rock,
-SER AENYS, m. (Tyana Wylde, died in childbed),


- Aenys's son, AEGON BLOODBORN, an outlaw,
- Aenys's son, RHAEGAR, m. Jeyne Beesbury,
- Rhaegar's son, ROBERT, a boy of thirteen,
- Rhaegar's daughter, WALDA, a girl of ten, called WHITE WALDA,
- Rhaegar's son, JONOS, a boy of eight, PERRIANE, m. Ser Leslyn
Haigh,
- Perriane's son, SER HARYS HAIGH, Harys's son,
WALDER HAIGH, a boy of four,
- Perriane's son, SER DONNEL HAIGH,
- Perriane's son, ALYN HAIGH, a squire,
by his second wife, (LADY CYRENNA, of House Swann):
-SER JARED, their eldest son, m. (Alys Frey),
- Jared's son, SER TYTOS, m. Zhoe Blanetree,
- Tytos's daughter, ZIA, a maid of fourteen,
- Tytos's son, ZACHERY, a boy of twelve, training at the Sept of
Oldtown,
- Jared's daughter, KYRA, m. Ser Garse Goodbrook,
- Kyra's son, WALDER GOODBROOK, a boy of nine,
- Kyra's daughter, JEYNE GOODBROOK, six, SEPTON LUCEON, in service
at the Great Sept of Baelor in King's Landing,
by his third wife, (LADY AMAREI of House Crakehall):
-SER HOSTEEN, their eldest son, m. Bellena Hawick,
- Hosteen's son, SER ARWOOD, m. Ryella Royce,
- Arwood's daughter, RYELLA, a girl of five,
- Arwood's twin sons, ANDROW and ALYN, three,


-LADY LYTHENE, m. Lord Lucias Vypren, Lythene's daughter, ELYANA, m. Ser Jon
Wylde,
- Elyana's son, RICKARD VVYLDE, four, Lythene's son,
-SER DAMON VYPREN, SYMOND, m. Betharios of Braavos,
-Symond's son, ALESANDER, a singer,
-Symond's daughter, ALYX, a maid of seventeen,
-Symond's son, BRADAMAR, a boy of ten, fostered on Braavos as a ward of
Oro Tendyris, a merchant of that city,
-SER DANWELL, m. Wynafrei Whent, (many stillbirths and miscarriages),
-MERRETT, m. Mariya Darry,
-Merrett's daughter, AMEREI, called AMI, a widow of sixteen, m. (Ser
Pate of the Blue Fork),
-Merrett's daughter, WALDA, called FAT WALDA, a wife of fifteen
years, m. Lord Roose Bolton,
-Merrett's daughter, MARISSA, a maid of thirteen,
-Merrett's son, WALDER, called LITTLE WALDER, a boy of seven,
taken captive at Winterfell while a ward of Lady Catelyn Stark,
-SER GEREMY, drowned, m. Carolei Waynwood,
-Geremy's son, SANDOR, a boy of twelve, a squire to Ser Donnel Waynwood,
-Geremy's daughter, CYNTHEA, a girl of nine, a ward of Lady Anya Waynwood,
-SER RAYMUND, m. Beony Beesbury,
-Raymund's son, ROBERT, sixteen, in training at the Citadel in Oldtown,
-Raymund's son, MALWYN, fifteen, apprenticed to an alchemist in Lys,
-Raymund's twin daughters, SERRA and SARRA, maiden girls of fourteen,
-Raymund's daughter, CERSEI, six, called LITTLE BEE,
by his fourth wife, (LADY ALYSSA, of House Blackwood):
-LOTHAR, their eldest son, called LAME LOTHAR, m. Leonella Lefford,


-Lothar's daughter, TYSANE, a girl of seven,
-Lothar's daughter, WALDA, a girl of four,
-Lothar's daughter, EMBERLEI, a girl of two,
-SER JAMMOS, m. Sallei Paege,
- Jammos's son, WALDER, called BIG WALDER, a boy of eight, taken captive at
Winterfell. while a ward of Lady Catelyn Stark,
- Jammos's twin sons, DICKON and MATHIS, five, SER WHALEN, m. Sylwa
Paege,
- Whalen's son, HOSTER, a boy of twelve, a squire to Ser Damon
Paege,
- Whalen's daughter, MERIANNE, called MERRY, a girl of eleven,
-LADY MORYA, m. Ser Flement Brax,
- Morya's son, ROBERT BRAX, nine, fostered at Casterly Rock as a page,
- Morya's son, WALDER BRAX, a boy of six,
- Morya's son, JON BRAX, a babe of three, TYTA, called TYTA THE MAID, a
maid of twenty-nine,
by his fifth wife, (LADY SARYA of House Whent): no progeny,
by his sixth wife, (LADY BETHANY of House Rosby):
-SER PERWYN, their eldest son, SER BENFREY, m. jyanna Frey, a cousin,
- Benfrey's daughter, DELLA, called DEAF DELLA, a girl of three,
- Benfrey's son, OSMUND, a boy of two,
-MAESTER WILLAMEN, in service at Longbow Hall,
-OLYVAR, squire to Robb Stark,
-ROSLIN, a maid of sixteen,
by his seventh wife, (LADY ANNARA of House Farring):


-ARWYN, a maid of fourteen,
-WENDEL, their eldest son, a boy of thirteen, fostered at Seagard as a page,
-COLA4AR, promised to the Faith, eleven,
-WALTYR, called TYR, a boy of ten,
-ELMAR, formerly betrothed to Arya Stark, a boy of nine,
-SHIREI, a girl of six,
by his eighth wife, LADY JOYEUSE of House Erenford, no progeny as yet,
Lord Walder's natural children, by sundry mothers,
- WALDER RIVERS, called BASTARD WALDER,
- Bastard Walder's son, SER AEMON RIVERS,
- Bastard Walder's daughter, WALDA RIVERS,
- MAESTER MELWYS, in service at Rosby,
- JEYNE RIVERS, MARTYN RIVERS, RYGER RIVERS, RONEL RIVERS, MELLARA
RIVERS, others.
HOUSE LANNISTER
The Lannisters of Casterly Rock remain the principal support of King Joffrey's claim to the Iron Throne.
They boast of descent from Lann the Clever, the legendary trickster of the Age of Heroes. The gold of
Casterly Rock and the Golden Tooth has made them the wealthiest of the Great Houses. The Lannister
sigil is a golden lion upon a crimson field. Their words are Hear Me Roar!
TYWIN LANNISTER, Lord of Casterly Rock, Warden of the West,
Shield of Lannisport, and Hand of the King,
- his son, SER JAIME, called THE KINGSLAYER, a twin to Queen Cersei, Lord
Commander of the Kingsguard, and Warden of the East, a captive at Riverrun,
- his daughter, QUEEN CERSEI, twin to Jaime, widow of King Robert I Baratheon, Queen


Regent for her son Joffrey,
- her son, KING JOFFREY BARATHEON, a boy of thirteen,
-her daughter, PRINCESS MYRCELLA BARATHEON, a girl of nine, a ward of
Prince Doran Martell in Dorne,
- her son, PRINCE TOMMEN BARATHEON, a boy of eight, heir to the Iron
Throne,
- his dwarf son, TYRION, called THE IMP, called HALFMAN, wounded and scarred on
the Blackwater,
- his siblings:
- SER KEVAN, Lord Tywin's eldest brother, - Ser Kevan's wife, DORNA, of House Swyft,
- their son, SER LANCEL, formerly a squire to King Robert, wounded and near
death,
- their son, WILLEM, twin to Martyn, a squire, captive at Riverrun,
- their son, MARTYN, twin to Willem, a squire, a captive with Robb Stark,
- their daughter, JANEI, a girl of two, - GENNA, his sister, wed to Ser Emmon
Frey,
- their son, SER CLEOS FREY, a captive at Riverrun,
- their son, SER LYONEL,
- their son, TION FREY, a squire, captive at Riverrun,
- their son, WALDER, called RED WALDER, a squire at Casterly Rock,
- (SER TYGETT), his second brother, died of a pox,
- Tygett's widow, DARLESSA, of House Marbrand,
- their son, TYREK, squire to the king, missing,
- (GERION), his youngest brother, lost at sea,
- Gerion's bastard daughter, JOY, eleven,
-his cousin, (SER STAFFORD LANNISTER), brother to the late Lady Joanna, slain at Oxcross,
- Ser Stafford's daughters, CERENNA and MYRIELLE,


- Ser Stafford's son, SER DAVEN,
his cousins:
- SER DAMION LANNISTER, m. Lady Shiera Crakehall,
- his son, SER LUCION,
- his daughter, LANNA, m. Lord Antario Jast,
- MARGOT, m. Lord Titus Peake,
his household:
- MAESTER CREYLEN, healer, tutor, and counselor,
- VYLARR, captain-of-guards,
- LUM and RED LESTER, guardsmen,
- WNITESMILE WAT, a singer,
- SER BENEDICT BROOM, master-at-arms,
his lords bannermen:
- DAMON MARBRAND, Lord of Ashemark,
- SER ADDAM. MARBRAND, his son and heir,
- ROLAND CRAKEHALL, Lord of Crakehall,
- his brother, (SER BURTON CRAKEHALL), killed by Lord Beric Dondarrion
and his outlaws,
- his son and heir, SER TYBOLT CRAKEHALL,
- his second son, SER LYLE CRAKEHALL, called STRONGBOAR, a captive at
Pinkmaiden Castle,
- his youngest son, SER MERLON CRAKEHALL, ANDROS BRAXI, Lord of
Homvale, drowned during the Battle of the Camps,
- his brother, (SER RUPERT BRAX), slain at Oxcross,


- his eldest son, SER TYTOS BRAX, now Lord of Homvale, a captive
at the Twins,
- his second son, (SER ROBERT BRAX), slain at the Battle of the
Fords,
- his third son, SER FLEMENT BRAX, now heir, (LORD LEO
LEFFORD), drowned at the Stone Mill,
-REGENARD ESTREN, Lord of Wyndhall, a captive at the Twins,
-GAWEN WESTERLING, Lord of the Crag, a captive at Seagard,
- his wife, LADY SYBELL, of House Spicer,
- her brother, SER ROLPH SPICER,
- her cousin, SER SAMWELL SPICER,
- their children:
- SER RAYNALD WESTERLING,
- JEYNE, a maid of sixteen years,
- ELEYNA, a girl of twelve,
- ROLLAM, a boy of nine,
-LEVVYS LYDDEN, Lord of the Deep Den,
-LORD ANTARIO JAST, a captive at Pinkmaiden Castle,
-LORD PHILIP PLUMM,
- his sons, SER DENNIS PLUMM, SER PETER PLUMM, and SER
HARVV`YN PLUMM, called HARDSTONE,
-QUENTEN BANEFORT, Lord of Banefort, a captive of Lord Jonos Bracken, his knights
and captains:
-SER HARYS SWYFT, good-father to Ser Kevan Lannister,
- Ser Harys's son, SER STEFFON SWYFT,
- Ser Steffon's daughter, JOANNA,
- Ser Harys's daughter, SHIERLE, m. Ser Melwyn Sarsfield,
-SER FORLEY PRESTER,


-SER GARTH GREENFIELD, a captive at Raventree Hall,
-SER LYMOND VIKARY, a captive at Wayfarer's Rest,
-LORD SELMOND STACKSPEAR,
- his son, SER STEFFON STACKSPEAR,
- his younger son, SER ALYN STACKSPEAR,
-TERRENCE KENNING, Lord of Kayce,
- SER KENNOS OF KAYCE, a knight in his service,
-SER GREGOR CLEGANE, the Mountain That Rides,
- POLLIVER, CHISWYCK, RAFF THE SWEETLING, DUNSEN, and THE
TICKLER, soldiers in his service,
- (SER AMORY LORCH), fed to a bear by Vargo Hoat after the fall of Harrenhal.
HOUSE MARTELL
Dorne was the last of the Seven Kingdoms to swear fealty to the Iron Throne. Blood, custom, and
history all set the Dornishmen apart from the other kingdoms. At the outbreak of the War of the Five
Kings, Dome took no part. With the betrothal of Myrcella Baratheon to Prince Trystane, Sunspear
declared its support for King Joffrey and called its banners. The Martell banner is a red sun pierced by a
golden spear. Their words are Unbowed, Unbent, Unbroken.
DORAN NYMEROS MARTELL, Lord of Sunspear, Prince of Dome,
- his wife, MELLARIO, of the Free City of Norvos, their children:
- PRINCESS ARIANNE, their eldest daughter, heir to Sunspear,
- PRINCE QUENTYN, their elder son,
- PRINCE TRYSTANE, their younger son, betrothed to Myrcella Baratheon,
- his siblings:
- his sister, (PRINCESS ELIA), wife of Prince Rhaegar Targaryen, slain during the Sack of
King's Landing,
- their children:


-(PRINCESS RHAENYS), a young girl, slain during the Sack of King's Landing,
-(PRINCE AEGON), a babe, slain during the Sack of King's Landing,
- his brother, PRINCE OBERYN, called THE RED VIPER,
- Prince Oberyn's paramour, ELLARIA SAND,
- Prince Oberyn's bastard daughters, OBARA, NYMERIA,TYENE, SARELLA, ELIA,
OBELLA, DOREA, LOREZA, called THE SAND SNAKES,
-Prince Oberyn's companions:
- HARMEN ULLER, Lord of Hellholt,
- Harmen's brother, SER ULVVYCK ULLER,
- SER RYON ALLYRION,
- Ser Ryon's natural son, SER DAEMON SAND, the Bastard of
Godsgrace,
- DAGOS MANWOODY, Lord of Kingsgrave,
- Dagos's sons, MORS and DICKON,
- Dagos's brother, SER MYLES MANWOODY,
- SER ARRON QORGYLE,
- SER DEZIEL DALT, the Knight of Lemonwood,
- MYRIA JORDAYNE, heir to the Tor,
- LARRA BLACKMONT, Lady of Blackmont,
- her daughter, JYNESSA BLACKMONT,
- her son, PERROS BLACKMONT, a squire,
his household:
- AREO HOTAH, a Norvoshi sellsword, captain of guards,
- MAESTER CALEOTTE, counselor, healer, and tutor,
his lords bannermen:


- HARMEN ULLER, Lord of Hellholt,
- EDRIC DAYNE, Lord of Starfall,
- DELONNE ALLYRION, Lady of Godsgrace,
- DAGOS MANWOODY, Lord of Kingsgrave,
- LARRA BLACKMONT, Lady of Blackmont,
- TREMOND GARGALEN, Lord of Salt Shore,
- ANDERS YRONWOOD, Lord of Yronwood,
- NYMELLA TOLAND.
HOUSE TULLY
Lord Edmyn Tully of Riverrun was one of the first of the river lords to swear fealty to Aegon the
Conqueror. The victorious Aegon rewarded him by raising House Tully to dominion over all the lands of
the Trident. The Tully sigil is a leaping trout, silver, on a field of rippling blue and red. The Tully words are
Family, Duty, Honor.
HOSTER TULLY, Lord of Riverrun,
- his wife, (LADY MINISA, of House Whent), died in childbed,
- their children:
- CATELYN, widow of Lord Eddard Stark of Winterfell,
- her eldest son, ROBB STARK, Lord of Winterfell, King in the North,
and King of the Trident,
- her daughter, SANSA STARK, a maid of twelve, captive at King's
Landing,
- her daughter, ARYA STARK, ten, missing for a year,
- her son, BRANDON STARK, eight, believed dead,
- her son, RICKON STARK, four, believed dead,
- LYSA, widow of Lord Jon Arryn of the Eyrie,
- her son, ROBERT, Lord of the Eyrie and Defender of the Vale, a
sickly boy of seven years,


- SER EDMURE, his only son, heir to Riverrun,
- Ser Edmure's friends and companions:
- SER MARQ PIPER, heir to Pinkmaiden,
- LORD LYMOND GOODBROOK,
- SER RONALD VANCE, called THE BAD, and his
brothers, SER HUGO, SER ELLERY, and KIRTH,
- PATREK MALLISTER, LUCAS BLACKWOOD, SER
PERWYN FREY, TRISTAN RYGER,
- SER ROBERT PAEGE, his brother,
- SER BRYNDEN, called The Blackfish,
- his household:
- MAESTER VYMAN, counselor, healer, and tutor,
- SER DESMOND GRELL, master-at-arms,
- SER ROBIN RYGER, captain of the guard,
- LONG LEW, ELWOOD, DELP, guardsmen,
- UTHERYDES WAYN, steward of Riverrun,
- RYMUND THE RHYMER, a singer,
- his lords bannermen:
- JONOS BRACKEN, Lord of the Stone Hedge,
- JASON MALLISTER, Lord of Seagard,
- WALDER FREY, Lord of the Crossing,
- CLEMENT PIPER, Lord of Pinkmaiden. Castle,
- KARYL VANCE, Lord of Wayfarer's Rest,
- NORBERT VANCE, Lord of Atranta,


- THEOMAR SMALLWOOD, Lord of Acorn Hall,
- his wife, LADY RAVELLA, of House Swann,
- their daughter, CARELLEN,
- WILLIAM MOOTON, Lord of Maidenpool,
- SHELLA WHENT, dispossessed Lady of Harrenhal,
- SER HALMON PAEGE.
- TYTOS BLACKWOOD, Lord of Raventree
HOUSE TYRELL
The Tyrells rose to power as stewards to the Kings of the Reach, whose domain included the fertile
plains of the southwest from the Dornish marches and Blackwater Rush to the shores of the Sunset Sea.
Through the female line, they claim descent from Garth Greenhand, gardener king of the First Men, who
wore a crown of vines and flowers and made the land bloom. When Mern IX, last king of House
Gardener, was slain on the Field of Fire, his steward Harlen Tyrell surrendered Highgarden to Aegon the
Conqueror. Aegon granted him the castle and dominion over the Reach. The Tyrell sigil is a golden rose
on a grass-green field. Their words are Growing Strong.
Lord Mace Tyrell declared his support for Renly Baratheon at the onset of the War of the Five Kings,
and gave him the hand of his daughter Margaery. Upon Renly's death, Highgarden made alliance with
House Lannister, and Margaery was betrothed to King Joffrey.
MACE TYRELL, Lord of Highgarden, Warden of the South, Defender of the Marches, and High
Marshall of the Reach,
- his wife, LADY ALERIE, of House Hightower of Oldtown, - their children:
- WILLAS, their eldest son, heir to Highgarden,
- SER GARLAN, called THE GALLANT, their second son,
- his wife, LADY LEONETTE of House Fossoway,
- SER LORAS, the Knight of Flowers, their youngest son, a Sworn Brother of the
Kingsguard,
- MARGAERY, their daughter, a widow of fifteen years, betrothed to King Joffrey
I Baratheon,


- Margaery's companions and ladies-in-waiting:
-her cousins, MEGGA, ALLA, and ELINOR TYRELL,
Elinor's betrothed, ALYN AMBROSE, squire,
- LADY ALYSANNE BULWER, a girl of eight,
- MEREDYTH CRANE, called MERRY,
- TAENA OF MYR, wife to LORD ORTON
MERRYWEATHER,
- LADY ALYCE GRACEFORD,
- SEPTA NYSTERICA, a sister of the Faith, his widowed
mother,
-LADY OLENNA of House Redwyne, called the Queen of
Thoms,
-Lady Olenna's guardsmen, ARRYK and ERRYK,
called LEFT and RIGHT,
- his sisters:
- LADY MINA, wed to Paxter Redwyne, Lord of the Arbor,
- their children:
- SER HORAS REDWYNE, twin to Hobber, mocked as
HORROR,
- SER HOBBER REDWYNE, twin to Horas, mocked as
SLOBBER,
- DESMERA REDWYNE, a maid of sixteen,
- LADY JANNA, wed to Ser Jon Fossoway,
- his uncles and cousins:
-his father's brother, GARTH, called THE GROSS, Lord Seneschal of Highgarden,
- Garth's bastard sons, GARSE and GARRETT FLOWERS,
- his father's brother, SER MORYN, Lord Commander of the City Watch of
oldtown,
- Moryn's son, (SER LUTHOR), m. Lady Elyn Norridge,


- Luthor's son, SER THEODORE, m. Lady Lia. Serry,
- Theodore's daughter, ELINOR, - Theodore's
son, LUTHOR, a squire,
- Luthor's son, MAESTER MEDWICK,
- Luthor's daughter, OLENE, m. Ser Leo Blackbar,
- Moryn's son, LEO, called LEO THE LAZY, his father's brother,
-MAESTER GORMON, a scholar of the Citadel, his cousin,
-(SER QUENTIN), died at Ashford,
- Quentin's son, SER OLYMER, m. Lady Lysa Meadows,
- Olymer's sons, RAYMUND and RICKARD,
- Olymer's daughter, MEGGA, his cousin,
- MAESTER NORMUND, in service at Blackcrown, his cousin,
- (SER VICTOR), slain by the Smiling Knight of the Kingswood Brotherhood,
- Victor's daughter, VICTARIA, m. (Lord Jon Bulwer), died of a
summer fever,
- their daughter, LADY ALYSANNE BULWER, eight,
- Victor's son, SER LEO, m. Lady Alys Beesbury,
- Leo's daughters, ALLA and LEONA,
- Leo's sons, LYONEL, LUCAS, and LORENT,
his household at Highgarden:
- MAESTER LOMYS, counselor, healer, and tutor,
- IGON VYRWEL, captain of the guard,
- SER VORTIMER CRANE, master-at-arms,
- BUTTERBUMPS, fool and jester, hugely fat,


his lords bannermen:
- RANDYLL TARLY, Lord of Horn Hill,
- PAXTER REDWYNE, Lord of the Arbor,
- ARWYN OAKHEART, Lady of Old Oak,
- MATHIS ROWAN, Lord of Goldengrove,
- ALESTER FLORENT, Lord of Brightwater Keep, a rebel in support of Stannis Baratheon,
- LEYTON HIGHTOWER, Voice of Oldtown, Lord of the Port,
- ORTON MERRYWEATHER, Lord of Longtable,
- LORD ARTHUR AMBROSE,
his knights and sworm swords:
- SER MARK MULLENDORE, crippled during the Battle of the Blackwater,
- SER JON FOSSOWAY, of the green-apple Fossoways,
- SER TANTON FOSSOWAY, of the red-apple Fossoways.
REBELS, ROGUES, AND SWORN BROTHERS
THE SWORN BROTHERS OF THE NIGHT'S WATCH
(ranging Beyond the Wall)
-JEOR MORMONT, called THE OLD BEAR, Lord Commander of the Night's Watch,
- JON SNOW, the Bastard of Winterfell, his steward and squire, lost while
scouting the Skirling Pass,
- GHOST, his direwolf, white and silent,
- EDDISON TOLLETT, called DOLOROUS EDD, his squire,


- THOREN SMALLWOOD, commanding the rangers,
- DYWEN, DIRK, SOFTFOOT, GRENN, BEDWYCK called GIANT, OLLO
LOPHAND, GRUBBS, BERNARR called BROWN BERNARR, another BERNARR called BLACK
BERNARR, TIM STONE, ULMER OF KINGSWOOD, GARTH called GREYFEATHER, GARTH
OF GREENAWAY, GARTH OF OLDTOWN, ALAN OF ROSBY, RONNEL HARCLAY,
AETHAN, RYLES, MAWNEY, rangers,
- JARMEN BUCKWELL, commanding the scouts,
- BANNEN, KEDGE WHITEYE, TUMBERJON, FORNIO, GOADY, rangers
and scouts,
- SER OTTYN V%TYTHERS, commanding the rearguard,
- SER MALADOR LOCKE, commanding the baggage,
- DONNEL HILL, called SWEET DONNEL, his squire and steward,
- HAKE, a steward and cook,
- CHETT, an ugly steward, keeper of hounds,
- SAMWELL TARLY, a fat steward, keeper of ravens, mocked as SER PIGGY,
- LARK called THE SISTERMAN, his cousin ROLLEY OF SISTERTON,
- CLUBFOOT KARL, MASLYN, SMALL PAUL, SAWWOOD, LEFT HAND LEW,
ORPHAN OSS, MUTTERING BILL, stewards,
-(QHORIN HALFHAND), commanding the rangers from the Shadow Tower, slain in the
Skirling Pass,
- (SQUIRE DALBRIDGE, EGGEN), rangers, slain in the Skirling Pass,
- STONESNAKE, a ranger and mountaineer, lost afoot in Skirling Pass,
- BLANE, Qhorin Halfhand's second,
commanding the Shadow Tower men on the Fist of the First Men,
-SER BYAM FLINT,
(at Castle Black)


- BOWEN MARSH, Lord Steward and castellan,
-MAESTER AEMON (TARGARYEN), healer and counselor, a blind man, one hundred
years old,
- his steward, CLYDAS,
- BENJEN STARK, First Ranger, missing, feared dead,
- SER WYNTON STOUT, eighty years a ranger,
- SER ALADALE WYNCH, PYPAR, DEAF DICK FOLLARD, HAIRY HAL, BLACK
JACK BULWER, ELRON, MATTHAR, rangers,
-OTHELL YARWYCK, First Builder,
- SPARE BOOT, YOUNG HENLY, HAIDER, ALBETT, KEGS, SPOTTED PATE OF
MAIDENPOOL, builders,
-DONAL NOYE, armorer, smith, and steward, one-armed,
- THREE-FINGER HOBB, steward and chief cook,
- TIM TANGLETONGUE, EASY, MULLY, OLD HENLY, CUGEN, RED ALYN OF
THE ROSEWOOD, JEREN, stewards,
- SEPTON CELLADOR, a drunken devout, SER ENDREW TARTH, master-at-arms,
- RAST, ARRON, EMRICK, SATIN, HOP-ROBIN, recruits in training,
- CONWY, GUEREN, recruiters and collectors,
(at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea)
-COTTER PYKE, Commander Eastwatch,
-MAESTER HARMUNE, healer and counselor,
- SER ALLISER THORNE, master-at-arms,
- JANOS SLYNT, former commander of the City Watch of King's Landing, briefly Lord of
Harrenhal,
- SER GLENDON HEWETT,
- DAREON, steward and singer,
- IRON EMMETT, a ranger famed for his strength,


(at Shadow Tower)
- SER DENYS MALLISTER, Commander, Shadow Tower
- his steward and squire, WALLACE MASSEY,
- MAESTER MULLIN, healer and counselor.
THE BROTHERHOOD WITHOUT BANNERS AN OUTLAW FELLOWSHIP
-BERIC DONDARRION, Lord of Blackhaven, called THE LIGHTNING LORD, oft reported dead,
-his right hand, THOROS OF MYR, a red priest,
-his squire, EDRIC DAYNE, Lord of Starfall, twelve,
-his followers:
- LEM, called LEM LEMONCLOAK, a one-time soldier,
- HARWIN, son of Hullen, formerly in service to Lord Eddard Stark at Winterfell,
- GREENBEARD, a Tyroshi sellsword,
- TOM OF SEVENSTREAMS, a singer of dubious report, called TOM
SEVENSTRINGS and TOM 0' SEVENS,
- ANGUY THE ARCHER, a bowman from the Dornish Marches,
- JACK-BE-LUCKY, a wanted man, short an eye,
- THE MAD HUNTSMAN, of Stoney Sept,
- KYLE, NOTCH, DENNETT, longbowmen,
- MERRIT O'MOONTOWN, WATTY THE MILLER, LIKELY LUKE,
MUDGE, BEARDLESS DICK, outlaws in his band,
-at the Inn of the Kneeling Man:
- SHARNA, the innkeep, a cook and midwife,
- her husband, called HUSBAND, BOY, an orphan of the war,


- at the Peach, a brothel in Stoney Sept:
- TANSY, the red-haired proprietor,
- ALYCE, CASS, LANNA, JYZENE, HELLY, BELLA, some of her peaches,
- at Acorn Hall, the seat of House Smallwood:
- LADY RAVELLA, formerly of House Swann, wife to Lord Theomar
Smallwood,
- here and there and elsewhere:
- LORD LYMOND LYCHESTER, an old man of wandering wit, who once held
Ser Maynard at the bridge,
- his young caretaker, MAESTER ROONE,
- the ghost of High Heart,
- the Lady of the Leaves,
- the septon at Sallydance.
the WILDLINGS, or the FREE FOLK
MANCE RAYDER, King-beyond-the-Wall,
- DALLA, his pregnant wife,
- VAL, her younger sister,
- his chiefs and captains:
- HARMA, called DOGSHEAD, commanding his van,
- THE LORD OF BONES, mocked as RATTLESHIRT, leader of a war band,
- YGRITTE, a young spearwife, a member of his band,
- RYK, called LONGSPEAR, a member of his band,
- RAGWYLE, LENYL, members of his band,
- his captive, JON SNOW, the crow-come-over,


- GHOST, Jon's direwolf, white and silent,
- STYR, Magnar of Thenn,
- JARL, a young raider, Val's lover,
- GRIGG THE GOAT, ERROK, QUORT, BODGER, DEL, BIG BOIL,
HEMPEN DAN, HENK THE HELM, LENN, TOEFINGER, STONE THUMBS, raiders,
- TORMUND, Mead-King of Ruddy Hall, called GIANTSBANE,
- TALL-TALKER, HORN-BLOWER, and BREAKER OF ICE, also
THUNDERFIST, HUSBAND TO BEARS, SPEAKER TO GODS, and FATHER OF HOSTS,
leader of a war band,
- his sons, TOREGG THE TALL, TORWYRD THE TAME, DORMUND, and
DRYN, his daughter MUNDA,
- JORELL, called ORELL THE EAGLEI, a skinchanger slain by Jon Snow in the
Skirling Pass,
- MAG MAR TUN DOH WEG, called MAG THE MIGHTY, of the giants,
- VARAMYR called SIXSKINS, a skinchanger, master of three wolves, a
shadowcat, and a snow bear,
- THE WEEPER, a raider and leader of a war band,
- (ALFYN CROWKILLER), a raider, slain by Qhorin Halfhand of the Night's
Watch,
- CRASTER, of Craster's Keep, who kneels to none,
- GILLY, his daughter and wife, great with child,
- DYAH, FERNY, NELLA, three of his nineteen wives.




A FEAST FOR CROWS
Book Four: A Song of Ice and Fire
George R.R. Martin
PROLOGUE
Dragons, said Mollander. He snatched a withered apple off the ground and tossed it
hand to hand.
Throw the apple, urged Alleras the Sphinx. He slipped an arrow from his quiver and nocked
it to his bowstring.
I should like to see a dragon. Roone was the youngest of them, a chunky boy still two years
shy of manhood. I should like that very much.
And I should like to sleep with Roseys arms around me, Pate thought. He shifted restlessly on
the bench. By the morrow the girl could well be his. I will take her far from Oldtown, across the
narrow sea to one of the Free Cities. There were no maesters there, no one to accuse him.
He could hear Emmas laughter coming through a shuttered window overhead, mingled with
the deeper voice of the man she was entertaining. She was the oldest of the serving wenches at
the Quill and Tankard, forty if she was a day, but still pretty in a fleshy sort of way. Rosey was
her daughter, fifteen and freshly flowered. Emma had decreed that Roseys maidenhead would
cost a golden dragon. Pate had saved nine silver stags and a pot of copper stars and pennies, for
all the good that would do him. He would have stood a better chance of hatching a real dragon
than saving up enough coin to make a golden one.
You were born too late for dragons, lad, Armen the Acolyte told Roone. Armen wore a
leather thong about his neck, strung with links of pewter, tin, lead, and copper, and like most
acolytes he seemed to believe that novices had turnips growing from their shoulders in place of
heads. The last one perished during the reign of King Aegon the Third.
The last dragon in Westeros, insisted Mollander.
Throw the apple, Alleras urged again. He was a comely youth, their Sphinx. All the serving
wenches doted on him. Even Rosey would sometimes touch him on the arm when she brought
him wine, and Pate had to gnash his teeth and pretend not to see.
The last dragon in Westeros was the last dragon, said Armen doggedly. That is well known.

The apple, Alleras said. Unless you mean to eat it.
Here. Dragging his clubfoot, Mollander took a short hop, whirled, and whipped the apple
sidearm into the mists that hung above the Honeywine. If not for his foot, he would have been a
knight like his father. He had the strength for it in those thick arms and broad shoulders. Far and
fast the apple flew...
...but not as fast as the arrow that whistled after it, a yard-long shaft of golden wood fletched
with scarlet feathers. Pate did not see the arrow catch the apple, but he heard it. A soft chunk
echoed back across the river, followed by a splash.
Mollander whistled. You cored it. Sweet.
Not half as sweet as Rosey. Pate loved her hazel eyes and budding breasts, and the way she
smiled every time she saw him. He loved the dimples in her cheeks. Sometimes she went
barefoot as she served, to feel the grass beneath her feet. He loved that too. He loved the clean
fresh smell of her, the way her hair curled behind her ears. He even loved her toes. One night
shed let him rub her feet and play with them, and hed made up a funny tale for every toe to
keep her giggling.
Perhaps he would do better to remain on this side of the narrow sea. He could buy a donkey
with the coin hed saved, and he and Rosey could take turns riding it as they wandered Westeros.
Ebrose might not think him worthy of the silver, but Pate knew how to set a bone and leech a
fever. The smallfolk would be grateful for his help. If he could learn to cut hair and shave beards,
he might even be a barber. That would be enough, he told himself, so long as I had Rosey. Rosey
was all that he wanted in the world.
That had not always been so. Once he had dreamed of being a maester in a castle, in service to
some open-handed lord who would honor him for his wisdom and bestow a fine white horse on
him to thank him for his service. How high hed ride, how nobly, smiling down at the smallfolk
when he passed them on the road...
One night in the Quill and Tankards common room, after his second tankard of fearsomely
strong cider, Pate had boasted that he would not always be a novice. Too true, Lazy Leo had
called out. Youll be a former novice, herding swine.
He drained the dregs of his tankard. The torchlit terrace of the Quill and Tankard was an island
of light in a sea of mist this morning. Downriver, the distant beacon of the Hightower floated in
the damp of night like a hazy orange moon, but the light did little to lift his spirits.
The alchemist should have come by now. Had it all been some cruel jape, or had something
happened to the man? It would not have been the first time that good fortune had turned sour on
Pate. He had once counted himself lucky to be chosen to help old Archmaester Walgrave with
the ravens, never dreaming that before long he would also be fetching the mans meals, sweeping
out his chambers, and dressing him every morning. Everyone said that Walgrave had forgotten
more of ravencraft than most maesters ever knew, so Pate assumed a black iron link was the least
that he could hope for, only to find that Walgrave could not grant him one. The old man
remained an archmaester only by courtesy. As great a maester as once hed been, now his robes
concealed soiled smallclothes oft as not, and half a year ago some acolytes found him weeping in

the Library, unable to find his way back to his chambers. Maester Gormon sat below the iron
mask in Walgraves place, the same Gormon who had once accused Pate of theft.
In the apple tree beside the water, a nightingale began to sing. It was a sweet sound, a welcome
respite from the harsh screams and endless quorking of the ravens he had tended all day long.
The white ravens knew his name, and would mutter it to each other whenever they caught sight
of him, Pate, Pate, Pate, until he wanted to scream. The big white birds were Archmaester
Walgraves pride. He wanted them to eat him when he died, but Pate half suspected that they
meant to eat him too.
Perhaps it was the fearsomely strong ciderhe had not come here to drink, but Alleras had
been buying to celebrate his copper link, and guilt had made him thirstybut it almost sounded
as if the nightingale were trilling gold for iron, gold for iron, gold for iron. Which was passing
strange, because that was what the stranger had said the night Rosey brought the two of them
together. Who are you? Pate had demanded of him, and the man had replied, An alchemist. I
can change iron into gold. And then the coin was in his hand, dancing across his knuckles, the
soft yellow gold shining in the candlelight. On one side was a three-headed dragon, on the other
the head of some dead king. Gold for iron, Pate remembered, you wont do better. Do you want
her? Do you love her? I am no thief, he had told the man who called himself the alchemist, I
am a novice of the Citadel. The alchemist had bowed his head, and said, If you should
reconsider, I shall return here three days hence, with my dragon.
Three days had passed. Pate had returned to the Quill and Tankard, still uncertain what he was,
but instead of the alchemist hed found Mollander and Armen and the Sphinx, with Roone in
tow. It would have raised suspicions not to join them.
The Quill and Tankard never closed. For six hundred years it had been standing on its island in
the Honeywine, and never once had its doors been shut to trade. Though the tall, timbered
building leaned toward the south the way novices sometimes leaned after a tankard, Pate
expected that the inn would go on standing for another six hundred years, selling wine and ale
and fearsomely strong cider to rivermen and seamen, smiths and singers, priests and princes, and
the novices and acolytes of the Citadel.
Oldtown is not the world, declared Mollander, too loudly. He was a knights son, and drunk
as drunk could be. Since they brought him word of his fathers death upon the Blackwater, he got
drunk most every night. Even in Oldtown, far from the fighting and safe behind its walls, the
War of the Five Kings had touched them all... although Archmaester Benedict insisted that there
had never been a war of five kings, since Renly Baratheon had been slain before Balon Greyjoy
had crowned himself.
My father always said the world was bigger than any lords castle, Mollander went on.
Dragons must be the least of the things a man might find in Qarth and Asshai and Yi Ti. These
sailors stories...
... are stories told by sailors, Armen interrupted. Sailors, my dear Mollander. Go back down
to the docks, and I wager youll find sailors wholl tell you of the mermaids that they bedded, or
how they spent a year in the belly of a fish.

How do you know they didnt? Mollander thumped through the grass, looking for more
apples. Youd need to be down the belly yourself to swear they werent. One sailor with a story,
aye, a man might laugh at that, but when oarsmen off four different ships tell the same tale in
four different tongues...
The tales are not the same, insisted Armen. Dragons in Asshai, dragons in Qarth, dragons in
Meereen, Dothraki dragons, dragons freeing slaves... each telling differs from the last.
Only in details. Mollander grew more stubborn when he drank, and even when sober he was
bullheaded. All speak of dragons, and a beautiful young queen.
The only dragon Pate cared about was made of yellow gold. He wondered what had happened
to the alchemist. The third day. He said hed be here.
Theres another apple near your foot, Alleras called to Mollander, and I still have two
arrows in my quiver.
Fuck your quiver. Mollander scooped up the windfall. This ones wormy, he complained,
but he threw it anyway. The arrow caught the apple as it began to fall and sliced it clean in two.
One half landed on a turret roof, tumbled to a lower roof, bounced, and missed Armen by a foot.
If you cut a worm in two, you make two worms, the acolyte informed them.
If only it worked that way with apples, no one would ever need go hungry, said Alleras with
one of his soft smiles. The Sphinx was always smiling, as if he knew some secret jape. It gave
him a wicked look that went well with his pointed chin, widows peak, and dense mat of close-
cropped jet-black curls.
Alleras would make a maester. He had only been at the Citadel for a year, yet already he had
forged three links of his maesters chain. Armen might have more, but each of his had taken him
a year to earn. Still, he would make a maester too. Roone and Mollander remained pink-necked
novices, but Roone was very young and Mollander preferred drinking to reading.
Pate, though...
He had been five years at the Citadel, arriving when he was no more than three-and-ten, yet his
neck remained as pink as it had been on the day he first arrived from the westerlands. Twice had
he believed himself ready. The first time he had gone before Archmaester Vaellyn to
demonstrate his knowledge of the heavens. Instead he learned how Vinegar Vaellyn had earned
that name. It took Pate two years to summon up the courage to try again. This time he submitted
himself to kindly old Archmaester Ebrose, renowned for his soft voice and gentle hands, but
Ebroses sighs had somehow proved just as painful as Vaellyns barbs.
One last apple, promised Alleras, and I will tell you what I suspect about these dragons.
What could you know that I dont? grumbled Mollander. He spied an apple on a branch,
jumped up, pulled it down, and threw. Alleras drew his bowstring back to his ear, turning
gracefully to follow the target in flight. He loosed his shaft just as the apple began to fall.
You always miss your last shot, said Roone.
The apple splashed down into the river, untouched.
See? said Roone.

The day you make them all is the day you stop improving. Alleras unstrung his longbow and
eased it into its leather case. The bow was carved from goldenheart, a rare and fabled wood from
the Summer Isles. Pate had tried to bend it once, and failed. The Sphinx looks slight, but theres
strength in those slim arms, he reflected, as Alleras threw a leg across the bench and reached for
his wine cup. The dragon has three heads, he announced in his soft Dornish drawl.
Is this a riddle? Roone wanted to know. Sphinxes always speak in riddles in the tales.
No riddle. Alleras sipped his wine. The rest of them were quaffing tankards of the fearsomely
strong cider that the Quill and Tankard was renowned for, but he preferred the strange, sweet
wines of his mothers country. Even in Oldtown such wines did not come cheap.
It had been Lazy Leo who dubbed Alleras the Sphinx. A sphinx is a bit of this, a bit of that: a
human face, the body of a lion, the wings of a hawk. Alleras was the same: his father was a
Dornishman, his mother a black-skinned Summer Islander. His own skin was dark as teak. And
like the green marble sphinxes that flanked the Citadels main gate, Alleras had eyes of onyx.
No dragon has ever had three heads except on shields and banners, Armen the Acolyte said
firmly. That was a heraldic charge, no more. Furthermore, the Targaryens are all dead.
Not all, said Alleras. The Beggar King had a sister.
I thought her head was smashed against a wall, said Roone.
No, said Alleras. It was Prince Rhaegars young son Aegon whose head was dashed against
the wall by the Lion of Lannisters brave men. We speak of Rhaegars sister, born on
Dragonstone before its fall. The one they called Daenerys.
The Stormborn. I recall her now. Mollander lifted his tankard high, sloshing the cider that
remained. Heres to her! He gulped, slammed his empty tankard down, belched, and wiped his
mouth with the back of his hand. Wheres Rosey? Our rightful queen deserves another round of
cider, wouldnt you say?
Armen the Acolyte looked alarmed. Lower your voice, fool. You should not even jape about
such things. You never know who could be listening. The Spider has ears everywhere.
Ah, dont piss your breeches, Armen. I was proposing a drink, not a rebellion.
Pate heard a chuckle. A soft, sly voice called out from behind him. I always knew you were a
traitor, Hopfrog. Lazy Leo was slouching by the foot of the old plank bridge, draped in satin
striped in green and gold, with a black silk half cape pinned to his shoulder by a rose of jade. The
wine hed dribbled down his front had been a robust red, judging from the color of the spots. A
lock of his ash-blond hair fell down across one eye.
Mollander bristled at the sight of him. Bugger that. Go away. You are not welcome here.
Alleras laid a hand upon his arm to calm him, whilst Armen frowned. Leo. My lord. I had
understood that you were still confined to the Citadel for...
... three more days. Lazy Leo shrugged. Perestan says the world is forty thousand years old.
Mollos says five hundred thousand. What are three days, I ask you? Though there were a dozen
empty tables on the terrace, Leo sat himself at theirs. Buy me a cup of Arbor gold, Hopfrog, and
perhaps I wont inform my father of your toast. The tiles turned against me at the Checkered

Hazard, and I wasted my last stag on supper. Suckling pig in plum sauce, stuffed with chestnuts
and white truffles. A man must eat. What did you lads have?
Mutton, muttered Mollander. He sounded none too pleased about it. We shared a haunch of
boiled mutton.
Im certain it was filling. Leo turned to Alleras. A lords son should be open-handed,
Sphinx. I understand you won your copper link. Ill drink to that.
Alleras smiled back at him. I only buy for friends. And I am no lords son, Ive told you that.
My mother was a trader.
Leos eyes were hazel, bright with wine and malice. Your mother was a monkey from the
Summer Isles. The Dornish will fuck anything with a hole between its legs. Meaning no offense.
You may be brown as a nut, but at least you bathe. Unlike our spotted pig boy. He waved a
hand toward Pate.
If I hit him in the mouth with my tankard, I could knock out half his teeth, Pate thought. Spotted
Pate the pig boy was the hero of a thousand ribald stories: a good-hearted, empty-headed lout
who always managed to best the fat lordlings, haughty knights, and pompous septons who beset
him. Somehow his stupidity would turn out to have been a sort of uncouth cunning; the tales
always ended with Spotted Pate sitting on a lords high seat or bedding some knights daughter.
But those were stories. In the real world pig boys never fared so well. Pate sometimes thought
his mother must have hated him to have named him as she did.
Alleras was no longer smiling. You will apologize.
Will I? said Leo. How can I, with my throat so dry...
You shame your House with every word you say, Alleras told him. You shame the Citadel
by being one of us.
I know. So buy me some wine, that I might drown my shame.
Mollander said, I would tear your tongue out by the roots.
Truly? Then how would I tell you about the dragons? Leo shrugged again. The mongrel has
the right of it. The Mad Kings daughter is alive, and shes hatched herself three dragons.
Three? said Roone, astonished.
Leo patted his hand. More than two and less than four. I would not try for my golden link just
yet if I were you.
You leave him be, warned Mollander.
Such a chivalrous Hopfrog. As you wish. Every man off every ship thats sailed within a
hundred leagues of Qarth is speaking of these dragons. A few will even tell you that theyve seen
them. The Mage is inclined to believe them.
Armen pursed his lips in disapproval. Marwyn is unsound. Archmaester Perestan would be the
first to tell you that.
Archmaester Ryam says so too, said Roone.
Leo yawned. The sea is wet, the sun is warm, and the menagerie hates the mastiff.
He has a mocking name for everyone, thought Pate, but he could not deny that Marwyn looked
more a mastiff than a maester. As if he wants to bite you. The Mage was not like other maesters.

People said that he kept company with whores and hedge wizards, talked with hairy Ibbenese
and pitch-black Summer Islanders in their own tongues, and sacrificed to queer gods at the little
sailors temples down by the wharves. Men spoke of seeing him down in the undercity, in rat pits
and black brothels, consorting with mummers, singers, sellswords, even beggars. Some even
whispered that once he had killed a man with his fists.
When Marwyn had returned to Oldtown, after spending eight years in the east mapping distant
lands, searching for lost books, and studying with warlocks and shadowbinders, Vinegar Vaellyn
had dubbed him Marwyn the Mage. The name was soon all over Oldtown, to Vaellyns vast
annoyance. Leave spells and prayers to priests and septons and bend your wits to learning truths
a man can trust in, Archmaester Ryam had once counseled Pate, but Ryams ring and rod and
mask were yellow gold, and his maesters chain had no link of Valyrian steel.
Armen looked down his nose at Lazy Leo. He had the perfect nose for it, long and thin and
pointed. Archmaester Marwyn believes in many curious things, he said, but he has no more
proof of dragons than Mollander. Just more sailors stories.
Youre wrong, said Leo. There is a glass candle burning in the Mages chambers.
A hush fell over the torchlit terrace. Armen sighed and shook his head. Mollander began to
laugh. The Sphinx studied Leo with his big black eyes. Roone looked lost.
Pate knew about the glass candles, though he had never seen one burn. They were the worst-
kept secret of the Citadel. It was said that they had been brought to Oldtown from Valyria a
thousand years before the Doom. He had heard there were four; one was green and three were
black, and all were tall and twisted.
What are these glass candles? asked Roone.
Armen the Acolyte cleared his throat. The night before an acolyte says his vows, he must stand
a vigil in the vault. No lantern is permitted him, no torch, no lamp, no taper... only a candle of
obsidian. He must spend the night in darkness, unless he can light that candle. Some will try. The
foolish and the stubborn, those who have made a study of these so-called higher mysteries. Often
they cut their fingers, for the ridges on the candles are said to be as sharp as razors. Then, with
bloody hands, they must wait upon the dawn, brooding on their failure. Wiser men simply go to
sleep, or spend their night in prayer, but every year there are always a few who must try.
Yes. Pate had heard the same stories. But whats the use of a candle that casts no light?
It is a lesson, Armen said, the last lesson we must learn before we don our maesters chains.
The glass candle is meant to represent truth and learning, rare and beautiful and fragile things. It
is made in the shape of a candle to remind us that a maester must cast light wherever he serves,
and it is sharp to remind us that knowledge can be dangerous. Wise men may grow arrogant in
their wisdom, but a maester must always remain humble. The glass candle reminds us of that as
well. Even after he has said his vow and donned his chain and gone forth to serve, a maester will
think back on the darkness of his vigil and remember how nothing that he did could make the
candle burn... for even with knowledge, some things are not possible.
Lazy Leo burst out laughing. Not possible for you, you mean. I saw the candle burning with
my own eyes.

You saw some candle burning, I dont doubt, said Armen. A candle of black wax, perhaps.
I know what I saw. The light was queer and bright, much brighter than any beeswax or tallow
candle. It cast strange shadows and the flame never flickered, not even when a draft blew
through the open door behind me.
Armen crossed his arms. Obsidian does not burn.
Dragonglass, Pate said. The smallfolk call it dragonglass. Somehow that seemed important.
They do, mused Alleras, the Sphinx, and if there are dragons in the world again...
Dragons and darker things, said Leo. The grey sheep have closed their eyes, but the mastiff
sees the truth. Old powers waken. Shadows stir. An age of wonder and terror will soon be upon
us, an age for gods and heroes. He stretched, smiling his lazy smile. Thats worth a round, Id
say.
Weve drunk enough, said Armen. Morn will be upon us sooner than wed like, and
Archmaester Ebrose will be speaking on the properties of urine. Those who mean to forge a
silver link would do well not to miss his talk.
Far be it from me to keep you from the piss tasting, said Leo. Myself, I prefer the taste of
Arbor gold.
If the choice is piss or you, Ill drink piss. Mollander pushed back from the table. Come,
Roone.
The Sphinx reached for his bowcase. Its bed for me as well. I expect Ill dream of dragons
and glass candles.
All of you? Leo shrugged. Well, Rosey will remain. Perhaps Ill wake our little sweetmeat
and make a woman of her.
Alleras saw the look on Pates face. If he does not have a copper for a cup of wine, he cannot
have a dragon for the girl.
Aye, said Mollander. Besides, it takes a man to make a woman. Come with us, Pate. Old
Walgrave will wake when the sun comes up. Hell be needing you to help him to the privy.
If he remembers who I am today. Archmaester Walgrave had no trouble telling one raven from
another, but he was not so good with people. Some days he seemed to think Pate was someone
named Cressen. Not just yet, he told his friends. Im going to stay awhile. Dawn had not
broken, not quite. The alchemist might still be coming, and Pate meant to be here if he did.
As you wish, said Armen. Alleras gave Pate a lingering look, then slung his bow over one
slim shoulder and followed the others toward the bridge. Mollander was so drunk he had to walk
with a hand on Roones shoulder to keep from falling. The Citadel was no great distance as the
raven flies, but none of them were ravens and Oldtown was a veritable labyrinth of a city, all
wynds and crisscrossing alleys and narrow crookback streets. Careful, Pate heard Armen say
as the river mists swallowed up the four of them, the night is damp, and the cobbles will be
slippery.
When they were gone, Lazy Leo considered Pate sourly across the table. How sad. The Sphinx
has stolen off with all his silver, abandoning me to Spotted Pate the pig boy. He stretched,
yawning. How is our lovely little Rosey, pray?

Shes sleeping, Pate said curtly.
Naked, I dont doubt. Leo grinned. Do you think shes truly worth a dragon? One day I
suppose I must find out.
Pate knew better than to reply to that.
Leo needed no reply. I expect that once Ive broken in the wench, her price will fall to where
even pig boys will be able to afford her. You ought to thank me.
I ought to kill you, Pate thought, but he was not near drunk enough to throw away his life. Leo
had been trained to arms, and was known to be deadly with bravos blade and dagger. And if
Pate should somehow kill him, it would mean his own head too. Leo had two names where Pate
had only one, and his second was Tyrell. Ser Moryn Tyrell, commander of the City Watch of
Oldtown, was Leos father. Mace Tyrell, Lord of Highgarden and Warden of the South, was
Leos cousin. And Oldtowns Old Man, Lord Leyton of the Hightower, who numbered
Protector of the Citadel amongst his many titles, was a sworn bannerman of House Tyrell. Let
it go, Pate told himself. He says these things just to wound me.
The mists were lightening to the east. Dawn, Pate realized. Dawn has come, and the alchemist
has not. He did not know whether he should laugh or cry. Am I still a thief if I put it all back and
no one ever knows? It was another question that he had no answer for, like those that Ebrose and
Vaellyn had once asked him.
When he pushed back from the bench and got to his feet, the fearsomely strong cider all went to
his head at once. He had to put a hand on the table to steady himself. Leave Rosey be, he said,
by way of parting. Just leave her be, or I may kill you.
Leo Tyrell flicked the hair back from his eye. I do not fight duels with pig boys. Go away.
Pate turned and crossed the terrace. His heels rang against the weathered planks of the old
bridge. By the time he reached the other side, the eastern sky was turning pink. The world is
wide, he told himself. If I bought that donkey, I could still wander the roads and byways of the
Seven Kingdoms, leeching the smallfolk and picking nits out of their hair. I could sign on to
some ship, pull an oar, and sail to Qarth by the Jade Gates to see these bloody dragons for
myself. I do not need to go back to old Walgrave and the ravens.
Yet somehow his feet turned back toward the Citadel.
When the first shaft of sunlight broke through the clouds to the east, morning bells began to
peal from the Sailors Sept down by the harbor. The Lords Sept joined in a moment later, then
the Seven Shrines from their gardens across the Honeywine, and finally the Starry Sept that had
been the seat of the High Septon for a thousand years before Aegon landed at Kings Landing.
They made a mighty music. Though not so sweet as one small nightingale.
He could hear singing too, beneath the pealing of the bells. Each morning at first light the red
priests gathered to welcome the sun outside their modest wharfside temple. For the night is dark
and full of terrors. Pate had heard them cry those words a hundred times, asking their god Rhllor
to save them from the darkness. The Seven were gods enough for him, but he had heard that
Stannis Baratheon worshiped at the nightfires now. He had even put the fiery heart of Rhllor on
his banners in place of the crowned stag. If he should win the Iron Throne, well all need to learn

the words of the red priests song, Pate thought, but that was not likely. Tywin Lannister had
smashed Stannis and Rhllor upon the Blackwater, and soon enough he would finish them and
mount the head of the Baratheon pretender on a spike above the gates of Kings Landing.
As the nights mists burned away, Oldtown took form around him, emerging ghostlike from the
predawn gloom. Pate had never seen Kings Landing, but he knew it was a daub-and-wattle city,
a sprawl of mud streets, thatched roofs, and wooden hovels. Oldtown was built in stone, and all
its streets were cobbled, down to the meanest alley. The city was never more beautiful than at
break of day. West of the Honeywine, the Guildhalls lined the bank like a row of palaces.
Upriver, the domes and towers of the Citadel rose on both sides of the river, connected by stone
bridges crowded with halls and houses. Downstream, below the black marble walls and arched
windows of the Starry Sept, the manses of the pious clustered like children gathered round the
feet of an old dowager.
And beyond, where the Honeywine widened into Whispering Sound, rose the Hightower, its
beacon fires bright against the dawn. From where it stood atop the bluffs of Battle Island, its
shadow cut the city like a sword. Those born and raised in Oldtown could tell the time of day by
where that shadow fell. Some claimed a man could see all the way to the Wall from the top.
Perhaps that was why Lord Leyton had not made the descent in more than a decade, preferring to
rule his city from the clouds.
A butchers cart rumbled past Pate down the river road, five piglets in the back squealing in
distress. Dodging from its path, he just avoided being spattered as a townswoman emptied a pail
of night soil from a window overhead. When I am a maester in a castle I will have a horse to
ride, he thought. Then he tripped upon a cobble and wondered who he was fooling. There would
be no chain for him, no seat at a lords high table, no tall white horse to ride. His days would be
spent listening to ravens quork and scrubbing shit stains off Archmaester Walgraves
smallclothes.
He was on one knee, trying to wipe the mud off his robes, when a voice said, Good morrow,
Pate.
The alchemist was standing over him.
Pate rose. The third day... you said you would be at the Quill and Tankard.
You were with your friends. It was not my wish to intrude upon your fellowship. The
alchemist wore a hooded travelers cloak, brown and nondescript. The rising sun was peeking
over the rooftops behind his shoulder, so it was hard to make out the face beneath his hood.
Have you decided what you are?
Must he make me say it? I suppose I am a thief.
I thought you might be.
The hardest part had been getting down on his hands and knees to pull the strongbox from
underneath Archmaester Walgraves bed. Though the box was stoutly made and bound with iron,
its lock was broken. Maester Gormon had suspected Pate of breaking it, but that wasnt true.
Walgrave had broken the lock himself, after losing the key that opened it.

Inside, Pate had found a bag of silver stags, a lock of yellow hair tied up in a ribbon, a painted
miniature of a woman who resembled Walgrave (even to her mustache), and a knights gauntlet
made of lobstered steel. The gauntlet had belonged to a prince, Walgrave claimed, though he
could no longer seem to recall which one. When Pate shook it, the key fell out onto the floor.
If I pick that up, I am a thief, he remembered thinking. The key was old and heavy, made of
black iron; supposedly it opened every door at the Citadel. Only the archmaesters had such keys.
The others carried theirs upon their person or hid them away in some safe place, but if Walgrave
had hidden his, no one would ever have seen it again. Pate snatched up the key and had been
halfway to the door before turning back to take the silver too. A thief was a thief, whether he
stole a little or a lot. Pate, one of the white ravens had called after him, Pate, Pate, Pate.
Do you have my dragon? he asked the alchemist.
If you have what I require.
Give it here. I want to see. Pate did not intend to let himself be cheated.
The river road is not the place. Come.
He had no time to think about it, to weigh his choices. The alchemist was walking away. Pate
had to follow or lose Rosey and the dragon both, forever. He followed. As they walked, he
slipped his hand up into his sleeve. He could feel the key, safe inside the hidden pocket he had
sewn there. Maesters robes were full of pockets. He had known that since he was a boy.
He had to hurry to keep pace with the alchemists longer strides. They went down an alley,
around a corner, through the old Thieves Market, along Ragpickers Wynd. Finally, the man
turned into another alley, narrower than the first. This is far enough, said Pate. Theres no one
about. Well do it here.
As you wish.
I want my dragon.
To be sure. The coin appeared. The alchemist made it walk across his knuckles, the way he
had when Rosey brought the two of them together. In the morning light the dragon glittered as it
moved, and gave the alchemists fingers a golden glow.
Pate grabbed it from his hand. The gold felt warm against his palm. He brought it to his mouth
and bit down on it the way hed seen men do. If truth be told, he wasnt sure what gold should
taste like, but he did not want to look a fool.
The key? the alchemist inquired politely.
Something made Pate hesitate. Is it some book you want? Some of the old Valyrian scrolls
down in the locked vaults were said to be the only surviving copies in the world.
What I want is none of your concern.
No. Its done, Pate told himself. Go. Run back to the Quill and Tankard, wake Rosey with a
kiss, and tell her she belongs to you. Yet still he lingered. Show me your face.
As you wish. The alchemist pulled his hood down.
He was just a man, and his face was just a face. A young mans face, ordinary, with full cheeks
and the shadow of a beard. A scar showed faintly on his right cheek. He had a hooked nose, and

a mat of dense black hair that curled tightly around his ears. It was not a face Pate recognized. I
do not know you.
Nor I you.
Who are you?
A stranger. No one. Truly.
Oh. Pate had run out of words. He drew out the key and put it in the strangers hand, feeling
light-headed, almost giddy. Rosey, he reminded himself. Were done, then.
He was halfway down the alley when the cobblestones began to move beneath his feet. The
stones are slick and wet, he thought, but that was not it. He could feel his heart hammering in his
chest. Whats happening? he said. His legs had turned to water. I dont understand.
And never will, a voice said sadly.
The cobblestones rushed up to kiss him. Pate tried to cry for help, but his voice was failing too.
His last thought was of Rosey.

THE PROPHET
The prophet was drowning men on Great Wyk when they came to tell him that the king
was dead.
It was a bleak, cold morning, and the sea was as leaden as the sky. The first three men had
offered their lives to the Drowned God fearlessly, but the fourth was weak in faith and began to
struggle as his lungs cried out for air. Standing waist-deep in the surf, Aeron seized the naked
boy by the shoulders and pushed his head back down as he tried to snatch a breath. Have
courage, he said. We came from the sea, and to the sea we must return. Open your mouth and
drink deep of gods blessing. Fill your lungs with water, that you may die and be reborn. It does
no good to fight.
Either the boy could not hear him with his head beneath the waves, or else his faith had utterly
deserted him. He began to kick and thrash so wildly that Aeron had to call for help. Four of his
drowned men waded out to seize the wretch and hold him underwater. Lord God who drowned
for us, the priest prayed, in a voice as deep as the sea, let Emmond your servant be reborn from
the sea, as you were. Bless him with salt, bless him with stone, bless him with steel.
Finally, it was done. No more air was bubbling from his mouth, and all the strength had gone
out of his limbs. Facedown in the shallow sea floated Emmond, pale and cold and peaceful.
That was when the Damphair realized that three horsemen had joined his drowned men on the
pebbled shore. Aeron knew the Sparr, a hatchet-faced old man with watery eyes whose quavery
voice was law on this part of Great Wyk. His son Steffarion accompanied him, with another
youth whose dark red fur-lined cloak was pinned at the shoulder with an ornate brooch that
showed the black-and-gold warhorn of the Goodbrothers. One of Gorolds sons, the priest
decided at a glance. Three tall sons had been born to Goodbrothers wife late in life, after a
dozen daughters, and it was said that no man could tell one son from the others. Aeron Damphair
did not deign to try. Whether this be Greydon or Gormond or Gran, the priest had no time for
him.
He growled a brusque command, and his drowned men seized the dead boy by his arms and
legs to carry him above the tideline. The priest followed, naked but for a sealskin clout that
covered his private parts. Goosefleshed and dripping, he splashed back onto land, across cold
wet sand and sea-scoured pebbles. One of his drowned men handed him a robe of heavy
roughspun dyed in mottled greens and blues and greys, the colors of the sea and the Drowned
God. Aeron donned the robe and pulled his hair free. Black and wet, that hair; no blade had
touched it since the sea had raised him up. It draped his shoulders like a ragged, ropy cloak, and
fell down past his waist. Aeron wove strands of seaweed through it, and through his tangled,
uncut beard.
His drowned men formed a circle around the dead boy, praying. Norjen worked his arms whilst
Rus knelt astride him, pumping on his chest, but all moved aside for Aeron. He pried apart the
boys cold lips with his fingers and gave Emmond the kiss of life, and again, and again, until the

sea came gushing from his mouth. The boy began to cough and spit, and his eyes blinked open,
full of fear.
Another one returned. It was a sign of the Drowned Gods favor, men said. Every other priest
lost a man from time to time, even Tarle the Thrice-Drowned, who had once been thought so
holy that he was picked to crown a king. But never Aeron Greyjoy. He was the Damphair, who
had seen the gods own watery halls and returned to tell of it. Rise, he told the sputtering boy
as he slapped him on his naked back. You have drowned and been returned to us. What is dead
can never die.
But rises. The boy coughed violently, bringing up more water. Rises again. Every word
was bought with pain, but that was the way of the world; a man must fight to live. Rises again.
Emmond staggered to his feet. Harder. And stronger.
You belong to the god now, Aeron told him. The other drowned men gathered round and
each gave him a punch and a kiss to welcome him to the brotherhood. One helped him don a
roughspun robe of mottled blue and green and grey. Another presented him with a driftwood
cudgel. You belong to the sea now, so the sea has armed you, Aeron said. We pray that you
shall wield your cudgel fiercely, against all the enemies of our god.
Only then did the priest turn to the three riders, watching from their saddles. Have you come to
be drowned, my lords?
The Sparr coughed. I was drowned as a boy, he said, and my son upon his name day.
Aeron snorted. That Steffarion Sparr had been given to the Drowned God soon after birth he
had no doubt. He knew the manner of it too, a quick dip into a tub of seawater that scarce wet the
infants head. Small wonder the ironborn had been conquered, they who once held sway
everywhere the sound of waves was heard. That is no true drowning, he told the riders. He
that does not die in truth cannot hope to rise from death. Why have you come, if not to prove
your faith?
Lord Gorolds son came seeking you, with news. The Sparr indicated the youth in the red
cloak.
The boy looked to be no more than six-and-ten. Aye, and which are you? Aeron demanded.
Gormond. Gormond Goodbrother, if it please my lord.
It is the Drowned God we must please. Have you been drowned, Gormond Goodbrother?
On my name day, Damphair. My father sent me to find you and bring you to him. He needs to
see you.
Here I stand. Let Lord Gorold come and feast his eyes. Aeron took a leather skin from Rus,
freshly filled with water from the sea. The priest pulled out the cork and took a swallow.
I am to bring you to the keep, insisted young Gormond, from atop his horse.
He is afraid to dismount, lest he get his boots wet. I have the gods work to do. Aeron
Greyjoy was a prophet. He did not suffer petty lords ordering him about like some thrall.
Gorolds had a bird, said the Sparr.
A maesters bird, from Pyke, Gormond confirmed.

Dark wings, dark words. The ravens fly oer salt and stone. If there are tidings that concern
me, speak them now.
Such tidings as we bear are for your ears alone, Damphair, the Sparr said. These are not
matters I would speak of here before these others.
These others are my drowned men, gods servants, just as I am. I have no secrets from them,
nor from our god, beside whose holy sea I stand.
The horsemen exchanged a look. Tell him, said the Sparr, and the youth in the red cloak
summoned up his courage. The king is dead, he said, as plain as that. Four small words, yet the
sea itself trembled when he uttered them.
Four kings there were in Westeros, yet Aeron did not need to ask which one was meant. Balon
Greyjoy ruled the Iron Islands, and no other. The king is dead. How can that be? Aeron had seen
his eldest brother not a moons turn past, when he had returned to the Iron Islands from harrying
the Stony Shore. Balons grey hair had gone half-white whilst the priest had been away, and the
stoop in his shoulders was more pronounced than when the longships sailed. Yet all in all the
king had not seemed ill.
Aeron Greyjoy had built his life upon two mighty pillars. Those four small words had knocked
one down. Only the Drowned God remains to me. May he make me as strong and tireless as the
sea. Tell me the manner of my brothers death.
His Grace was crossing a bridge at Pyke when he fell and was dashed upon the rocks below.
The Greyjoy stronghold stood upon a broken headland, its keeps and towers built atop massive
stone stacks that thrust up from the sea. Bridges knotted Pyke together; arched bridges of carved
stone and swaying spans of hempen rope and wooden planks. Was the storm raging when he
fell? Aeron demanded of them.
Aye, the youth said, it was.
The Storm God cast him down, the priest announced. For a thousand thousand years sea and
sky had been at war. From the sea had come the ironborn, and the fish that sustained them even
in the depths of winter, but storms brought only woe and grief. My brother Balon made us great
again, which earned the Storm Gods wrath. He feasts now in the Drowned Gods watery halls,
with mermaids to attend his every want. It shall be for us who remain behind in this dry and
dismal vale to finish his great work. He pushed the cork back into his waterskin. I shall speak
with your lord father. How far from here to Hammerhorn?
Six leagues. You may ride pillion with me.
One can ride faster than two. Give me your horse, and the Drowned God will bless you.
Take my horse, Damphair, offered Steffarion Sparr.
No. His mount is stronger. Your horse, boy.
The youth hesitated half a heartbeat, then dismounted and held the reins for the Damphair.
Aeron shoved a bare black foot into a stirrup and swung himself onto the saddle. He was not
fond of horsesthey were creatures from the green lands and helped to make men weakbut
necessity required that he ride. Dark wings, dark words. A storm was brewing, he could hear it in

the waves, and storms brought naught but evil. Meet with me at Pebbleton beneath Lord
Merlyns tower, he told his drowned men, as he turned the horses head.
The way was rough, up hills and woods and stony defiles, along a narrow track that oft seemed
to disappear beneath the horses hooves. Great Wyk was the largest of the Iron Islands, so vast
that some of its lords had holdings that did not front upon the holy sea. Gorold Goodbrother was
one such. His keep was in the Hardstone Hills, as far from the Drowned Gods realm as any
place in the isles. Gorolds folk toiled down in Gorolds mines, in the stony dark beneath the
earth. Some lived and died without setting eyes upon salt water. Small wonder that such folk are
crabbed and queer.
As Aeron rode, his thoughts turned to his brothers.
Nine sons had been born from the loins of Quellon Greyjoy, the Lord of the Iron Islands.
Harlon, Quenton, and Donel had been born of Lord Quellons first wife, a woman of the
Stonetrees. Balon, Euron, Victarion, Urrigon, and Aeron were the sons of his second, a Sunderly
of Saltcliffe. For a third wife Quellon took a girl from the green lands, who gave him a sickly
idiot boy named Robin, the brother best forgotten. The priest had no memory of Quenton or
Donel, who had died as infants. Harlon he recalled but dimly, sitting grey-faced and still in a
windowless tower room and speaking in whispers that grew fainter every day as the greyscale
turned his tongue and lips to stone. One day we shall feast on fish together in the Drowned Gods
watery halls, the four of us and Urri too.
Nine sons had been born from the loins of Quellon Greyjoy, but only four had lived to
manhood. That was the way of this cold world, where men fished the sea and dug in the ground
and died, whilst women brought forth short-lived children from beds of blood and pain. Aeron
had been the last and least of the four krakens, Balon the eldest and boldest, a fierce and fearless
boy who lived only to restore the ironborn to their ancient glory. At ten he scaled the Flint Cliffs
to the Blind Lords haunted tower. At thirteen he could run a longships oars and dance the
finger dance as well as any man in the isles. At fifteen he had sailed with Dagmer Cleftjaw to the
Stepstones and spent a summer reaving. He slew his first man there and took his first two salt
wives. At seventeen Balon captained his own ship. He was all that an elder brother ought to be,
though he had never shown Aeron aught but scorn. I was weak and full of sin, and scorn was
more than I deserved. Better to be scorned by Balon the Brave than beloved of Euron Crows
Eye. And if age and grief had turned Balon bitter with the years, they had also made him more
determined than any man alive. He was born a lords son and died a king, murdered by a jealous
god, Aeron thought, and now the storm is coming, a storm such as these isles have never known.
It was long after dark by the time the priest espied the spiky iron battlements of the
Hammerhorn clawing at the crescent moon. Gorolds keep was hulking and blocky, its great
stones quarried from the cliff that loomed behind it. Below its walls, the entrances of caves and
ancient mines yawned like toothless black mouths. The Hammerhorns iron gates had been
closed and barred for the night. Aeron beat on them with a rock until the clanging woke a guard.
The youth who admitted him was the image of Gormond, whose horse hed taken. Which one
are you? Aeron demanded.

Gran. My father awaits you within.
The hall was dank and drafty, full of shadows. One of Gorolds daughters offered the priest a
horn of ale. Another poked at a sullen fire that was giving off more smoke than heat. Gorold
Goodbrother himself was talking quietly with a slim man in fine grey robes, who wore about his
neck a chain of many metals that marked him for a maester of the Citadel.
Where is Gormond? Gorold asked when he saw Aeron.
He returns afoot. Send your women away, my lord. And the maester as well. He had no love
of maesters. Their ravens were creatures of the Storm God, and he did not trust their healing, not
since Urri. No proper man would choose a life of thralldom, nor forge a chain of servitude to
wear about his throat.
Gysella, Gwin, leave us, Goodbrother said curtly. You as well, Gran. Maester Murenmure
will stay.
He will go, insisted Aeron.
This is my hall, Damphair. It is not for you to say who must go and who remains. The maester
stays.
The man lives too far from the sea, Aeron told himself. Then I shall go, he told Goodbrother.
Dry rushes rustled underneath the cracked soles of his bare black feet as he turned and stalked
away. It seemed he had ridden a long way for naught.
Aeron was almost at the door when the maester cleared his throat, and said, Euron Crows Eye
sits the Seastone Chair.
The Damphair turned. The hall had suddenly grown colder. The Crows Eye is half a world
away. Balon sent him off two years ago, and swore that it would be his life if he returned. Tell
me, he said hoarsely.
He sailed into Lordsport the day after the kings death, and claimed the castle and the crown as
Balons eldest brother, said Gorold Goodbrother. Now he sends forth ravens, summoning the
captains and the kings from every isle to Pyke, to bend their knees and do him homage as their
king.
No. Aeron Damphair did not weigh his words. Only a godly man may sit the Seastone
Chair. The Crows Eye worships naught but his own pride.
You were on Pyke not long ago, and saw the king, said Goodbrother. Did Balon say aught to
you of the succession?
Aye. They had spoken in the Sea Tower, as the wind howled outside the windows and the
waves crashed restlessly below. Balon had shaken his head in despair when he heard what Aeron
had to tell him of his last remaining son. The wolves have made a weakling of him, as I feared,
the king had said. I pray god that they killed him, so he cannot stand in Ashas way. That was
Balons blindness; he saw himself in his wild, headstrong daughter, and believed she could
succeed him. He was wrong in that, and Aeron tried to tell him so. No woman will ever rule the
ironborn, not even a woman such as Asha, he insisted, but Balon could be deaf to things he did
not wish to hear.

Before the priest could answer Gorold Goodbrother, the maesters mouth flapped open once
again. By rights the Seastone Chair belongs to Theon, or Asha if the prince is dead. That is the
law.
Green land law, said Aeron with contempt. What is that to us? We are ironborn, the sons of
the sea, chosen of the Drowned God. No woman may rule over us, nor any godless man.
And Victarion? asked Gorold Goodbrother. He has the Iron Fleet. Will Victarion make a
claim, Damphair?
Euron is the elder brother... began the maester.
Aeron silenced him with a look. In little fishing towns and great stone keeps alike such a look
from Damphair would make maids feel faint and send children shrieking to their mothers, and it
was more than sufficient to quell the chain-neck thrall. Euron is elder, the priest said, but
Victarion is more godly.
Will it come to war between them? asked the maester.
Ironborn must not spill the blood of ironborn.
A pious sentiment, Damphair, said Goodbrother, but not one that your brother shares. He
had Sawane Botley drowned for saying that the Seastone Chair by rights belonged to Theon.
If he was drowned, no blood was shed, said Aeron.
The maester and the lord exchanged a look. I must send word to Pyke, and soon, said Gorold
Goodbrother. Damphair, I would have your counsel. What shall it be, homage or defiance?
Aeron tugged his beard, and thought. I have seen the storm, and its name is Euron Crows Eye.
For now, send only silence, he told the lord. I must pray on this.
Pray all you wish, the maester said. It does not change the law. Theon is the rightful heir,
and Asha next.
Silence! Aeron roared. Too long have the ironborn listened to you chain-neck maesters
prating of the green lands and their laws. It is time we listened to the sea again. It is time we
listened to the voice of god. His own voice rang in that smoky hall, so full of power that neither
Gorold Goodbrother nor his maester dared a reply. The Drowned God is with me, Aeron thought.
He has shown me the way.
Goodbrother offered him the comforts of the castle for the night, but the priest declined. He
seldom slept beneath a castle roof, and never so far from the sea. Comforts I shall know in the
Drowned Gods watery halls beneath the waves. We are born to suffer, that our sufferings might
make us strong. All that I require is a fresh horse to carry me to Pebbleton.
That Goodbrother was pleased to provide. He sent his son Greydon as well, to show the priest
the shortest way through the hills down to the sea. Dawn was still an hour off when they set
forth, but their mounts were hardy and surefooted, and they made good time despite the
darkness. Aeron closed his eyes and said a silent prayer, and after a while began to drowse in the
saddle.
The sound came softly, the scream of a rusted hinge. Urri, he muttered, and woke, fearful.
There is no hinge here, no door, no Urri. A flying axe took off half of Urris hand when he was
ten-and-four, playing at the finger dance whilst his father and his elder brothers were away at

war. Lord Quellons third wife had been a Piper of Pinkmaiden Castle, a girl with big soft breasts
and brown does eyes. Instead of healing Urris hand the Old Way, with fire and seawater, she
gave him to her green land maester, who swore that he could sew back the missing fingers. He
did that, and later he used potions and poltices and herbs, but the hand mortified and Urri took a
fever. By the time the maester sawed his arm off, it was too late.
Lord Quellon never returned from his last voyage; the Drowned God in his goodness granted
him a death at sea. It was Lord Balon who came back, with his brothers Euron and Victarion.
When Balon heard what had befallen Urri, he removed three of the maesters fingers with a
cooks cleaver and sent his fathers Piper wife to sew them back on. Poltices and potions worked
as well for the maester as they had for Urrigon. He died raving, and Lord Quellons third wife
followed soon thereafter, as the midwife drew a stillborn daughter from her womb. Aeron had
been glad. It had been his axe that sheared off Urris hand, whilst they danced the finger dance
together, as friends and brothers will.
It shamed him still to recall the years that followed Urris death. At six-and-ten he called
himself a man, but in truth he had been a sack of wine with legs. He would sing, he would dance
(but not the finger dance, never again), he would jape and jabber and make mock. He played the
pipes, he juggled, he rode horses, and could drink more than all the Wynches and the Botleys,
and half the Harlaws too. The Drowned God gives every man a gift, even him; no man could piss
longer or farther than Aeron Greyjoy, as he proved at every feast. Once he bet his new longship
against a herd of goats that he could quench a hearthfire with no more than his cock. Aeron
feasted on goat for a year, and named the longship Golden Storm, though Balon threatened to
hang him from her mast when he heard what sort of ram his brother proposed to mount upon her
prow.
In the end the Golden Storm went down off Fair Isle during Balons first rebellion, cut in half
by a towering war galley called Fury when Stannis Baratheon caught Victarion in his trap and
smashed the Iron Fleet. Yet the god was not done with Aeron, and carried him to shore. Some
fishermen took him captive and marched him down to Lannisport in chains, and he spent the rest
of the war in the bowels of Casterly Rock, proving that krakens can piss farther and longer than
lions, boars, or chickens.
That man is dead. Aeron had drowned and been reborn from the sea, the gods own prophet. No
mortal man could frighten him, no more than the darkness could... nor memories, the bones of
the soul. The sound of a door opening, the scream of a rusted iron hinge. Euron has come again.
It did not matter. He was the Damphair priest, beloved of the god.
Will it come to war? asked Greydon Goodbrother as the sun was lightening the hills. A war
of brother against brother?
If the Drowned God wills it. No godless man may sit the Seastone Chair. The Crows Eye
will fight, that is certain. No woman could defeat him, not even Asha; women were made to fight
their battles in the birthing bed. And Theon, if he lived, was just as hopeless, a boy of sulks and
smiles. At Winterfell he proved his worth, such that it was, but the Crows Eye was no crippled

boy. The decks of Eurons ship were painted red, to better hide the blood that soaked them.
Victarion. The king must be Victarion, or the storm will slay us all.
Greydon left him when the sun was up, to take the news of Balons death to his cousins in their
towers at Downdelving, Crow Spike Keep, and Corpse Lake. Aeron continued on alone, up hills
and down vales along a stony track that drew wider and more traveled as he neared the sea. In
every village he paused to preach, and in the yards of petty lords as well. We were born from
the sea, and to the sea we all return, he told them. His voice was as deep as the ocean, and
thundered like the waves. The Storm God in his wrath plucked Balon from his castle and cast
him down, and now he feasts beneath the waves in the Drowned Gods watery halls. He raised
his hands. Balon is dead! The king is dead! Yet a king will come again! For what is dead may
never die, but rises again, harder and stronger! A king will rise!
Some of those who heard him threw down their hoes and picks to follow, so by the time he
heard the crash of waves a dozen men walked behind his horse, touched by god and desirous of
drowning.
Pebbleton was home to several thousand fisherfolk, whose hovels huddled round the base of a
square towerhouse with a turret at each corner. Twoscore of Aerons drowned men there awaited
him, camped along a grey sand beach in sealskin tents and shelters built of driftwood. Their
hands were roughened by brine, scarred by nets and lines, callused from oars and picks and axes,
but now those hands gripped driftwood cudgels hard as iron, for the god had armed them from
his arsenal beneath the sea.
They had built a shelter for the priest just above the tideline. Gladly he crawled into it, after he
had drowned his newest followers. My god, he prayed, speak to me in the rumble of the waves,
and tell me what to do. The captains and the kings await your word. Who shall be our king in
Balons place? Sing to me in the language of leviathan, that I may know his name. Tell me, O
Lord beneath the waves, who has the strength to fight the storm on Pyke?
Though his ride to Hammerhorn had left him weary, Aeron Damphair was restless in his
driftwood shelter, roofed over with black weeds from the sea. The clouds rolled in to cloak the
moon and stars, and the darkness lay as thick upon the sea as it did upon his soul. Balon favored
Asha, the child of his body, but a woman cannot rule the ironborn. It must be Victarion. Nine
sons had been born from the loins of Quellon Greyjoy, and Victarion was the strongest of them,
a bull of a man, fearless and dutiful. And therein lies our danger. A younger brother owes
obedience to an elder, and Victarion was not a man to sail against tradition. He has no love for
Euron, though. Not since the woman died.
Outside, beneath the snoring of his drowned men and the keening of the wind, he could hear the
pounding of the waves, the hammer of his god calling him to battle. Aeron crept from his little
shelter into the chill of the night. Naked he stood, pale and gaunt and tall, and naked he walked
into the black salt sea. The water was icy cold, yet he did not flinch from his gods caress. A
wave smashed against his chest, staggering him. The next broke over his head. He could taste the
salt on his lips and feel the god around him, and his ears rang with the glory of his song. Nine
sons were born from the loins of Quellon Greyjoy, and I was the least of them, as weak and

frightened as a girl. But no longer. That man is drowned, and the god has made me strong. The
cold salt sea surrounded him, embraced him, reached down through his weak mans flesh and
touched his bones. Bones, he thought. The bones of the soul. Balons bones, and Urris. The truth
is in our bones, for flesh decays and bone endures. And on the hill of Nagga, the bones of the
Grey Kings Hall...
And gaunt and pale and shivering, Aeron Damphair struggled back to the shore, a wiser man
than he had been when he stepped into the sea. For he had found the answer in his bones, and the
way was plain before him. The night was so cold that his body seemed to steam as he stalked
back toward his shelter, but there was a fire burning in his heart, and sleep came easily for once,
unbroken by the scream of iron hinges.
When he woke the day was bright and windy. Aeron broke his fast on a broth of clams and
seaweed cooked above a driftwood fire. No sooner had he finished than the Merlyn descended
from his towerhouse with half a dozen guards to seek him out. The king is dead, the Damphair
told him.
Aye. I had a bird. And now another. The Merlyn was a bald round fleshy man who styled
himself Lord in the manner of the green lands, and dressed in furs and velvets. One raven
summons me to Pyke, another to Ten Towers. You krakens have too many arms, you pull a man
to pieces. What say you, priest? Where should I send my longships?
Aeron scowled. Ten Towers, do you say? What kraken calls you there? Ten Towers was the
seat of the Lord of Harlaw.
The Princess Asha. She has set her sails for home. The Reader sends out ravens, summoning
all her friends to Harlaw. He says that Balon meant for her to sit the Seastone Chair.
The Drowned God shall decide who sits the Seastone Chair, the priest said. Kneel, that I
might bless you. Lord Merlyn sank to his knees, and Aeron uncorked his skin and poured a
stream of seawater on his bald pate. Lord God who drowned for us, let Meldred your servant be
born again from the sea. Bless him with salt, bless him with stone, bless him with steel. Water
ran down Merlyns fat cheeks to soak his beard and fox-fur mantle. What is dead may never
die, Aeron finished, but rises again, harder and stronger. But when Merlyn rose, he told him,
Stay and listen, that you may spread gods word.
Three feet from the waters edge the waves broke around a rounded granite boulder. It was
there that Aeron Damphair stood, so all his school might see him, and hear the words he had to
say.
We were born from the sea, and to the sea we all return, he began, as he had a hundred times
before. The Storm God in his wrath plucked Balon from his castle and cast him down, and now
he feasts beneath the waves. He raised his hands. The iron king is dead! Yet a king will come
again! For what is dead may never die, but rises again, harder and stronger!
A king shall rise! the drowned men cried.
He shall. He must. But who? The Damphair listened a moment, but only the waves gave
answer. Who shall be our king?

The drowned men began to slam their driftwood cudgels one against the other. Damphair!
they cried. Damphair King! Aeron King! Give us Damphair!
Aeron shook his head. If a father has two sons and gives to one an axe and to the other a net,
which does he intend should be the warrior?
The axe is for the warrior, Rus shouted back, the net for a fisher of the seas.
Aye, said Aeron. The god took me deep beneath the waves and drowned the worthless thing
I was. When he cast me forth again he gave me eyes to see, ears to hear, and a voice to spread his
word, that I might be his prophet and teach his truth to those who have forgotten. I was not made
to sit upon the Seastone Chair... no more than Euron Crows Eye. For I have heard the god, who
says, No godless man may sit my Seastone Chair!
The Merlyn crossed his arms against his chest. Is it Asha, then? Or Victarion? Tell us, priest!
The Drowned God will tell you, but not here. Aeron pointed at the Merlyns fat white face.
Look not to me, nor to the laws of men, but to the sea. Raise your sails and unship your oars,
my lord, and take yourself to Old Wyk. You, and all the captains and the kings. Go not to Pyke,
to bow before the godless, nor to Harlaw, to consort with scheming women. Point your prow
toward Old Wyk, where stood the Grey Kings Hall. In the name of the Drowned God I summon
you. I summon all of you! Leave your halls and hovels, your castles and your keeps, and return
to Naggas hill to make a kingsmoot!
The Merlyn gaped at him. A kingsmoot? There has not been a true kingsmoot in...
... too long a time! Aeron cried in anguish. Yet in the dawn of days the ironborn chose their
own kings, raising up the worthiest amongst them. It is time we returned to the Old Way, for
only that shall make us great again. It was a kingsmoot that chose Urras Ironfoot for High King,
and placed a driftwood crown upon his brows. Sylas Flatnose, Harrag Hoare, the Old Kraken, the
kingsmoot raised them all. And from this kingsmoot shall emerge a man to finish the work King
Balon has begun and win us back our freedoms. Go not to Pyke, nor to the Ten Towers of
Harlaw, but to Old Wyk, I say again. Seek the hill of Nagga and the bones of the Grey Kings
Hall, for in that holy place when the moon has drowned and come again we shall make ourselves
a worthy king, a godly king. He raised his bony hands on high again. Listen! Listen to the
waves! Listen to the god! He is speaking to us, and he says, We shall have no king but from the
kingsmoot!
A roar went up at that, and the drowned men beat their cudgels one against the other. A
kingsmoot! they shouted. A kingsmoot, a kingsmoot. No king but from the kingsmoot! And
the clamor that they made was so thunderous that surely the Crows Eye heard the shouts on
Pyke, and the vile Storm God in his cloudy hall. And Aeron Damphair knew he had done well.

THE CAPTAIN OF GUARDS
The blood oranges are well past ripe, the prince observed in a weary voice, when the
captain rolled him onto the terrace.
After that he did not speak again for hours.
It was true about the oranges. A few had fallen to burst open on the pale pink marble. The sharp
sweet smell of them filled Hotahs nostrils each time he took a breath. No doubt the prince could
smell them too, as he sat beneath the trees in the rolling chair Maester Caleotte had made for
him, with its goose-down cushions and rumbling wheels of ebony and iron.
For a long while the only sounds were the children splashing in the pools and fountains, and
once a soft plop as another orange dropped onto the terrace to burst. Then, from the far side of
the palace, the captain heard the faint drumbeat of boots on marble.
Obara. He knew her stride; long-legged, hasty, angry. In the stables by the gates, her horse
would be lathered, and bloody from her spurs. She always rode stallions, and had been heard to
boast that she could master any horse in Dorne... and any man as well. The captain could hear
other footsteps as well, the quick soft scuffing of Maester Caleotte hurrying to keep up.
Obara Sand always walked too fast. She is chasing after something she can never catch, the
prince had told his daughter once, in the captains hearing.
When she appeared beneath the triple arch, Areo Hotah swung his longaxe sideways to block
the way. The head was on a shaft of mountain ash six feet long, so she could not go around. My
lady, no farther. His voice was a bass grumble thick with the accents of Norvos. The prince
does not wish to be disturbed.
Her face had been stone before he spoke; then it hardened. You are in my way, Hotah. Obara
was the eldest Sand Snake, a big-boned woman near to thirty, with the close-set eyes and rat-
brown hair of the Oldtown whore whod birthed her. Beneath a mottled sandsilk cloak of dun
and gold, her riding clothes were old brown leather, worn and supple. They were the softest
things about her. On one hip she wore a coiled whip, across her back a round shield of steel and
copper. She had left her spear outside. For that, Areo Hotah gave thanks. Quick and strong as she
was, the woman was no match for him, he knew... but she did not, and he had no wish to see her
blood upon the pale pink marble.
Maester Caleotte shifted his weight from foot to foot. Lady Obara, I tried to tell you...
Does he know that my father is dead? Obara asked the captain, paying the maester no more
mind than she would a fly, if any fly had been foolish enough to buzz about her head.
He does, the captain said. He had a bird.
Death had come to Dorne on raven wings, writ small and sealed with a blob of hard red wax.
Caleotte must have sensed what was in that letter, for hed given it Hotah to deliver. The prince
thanked him, but for the longest time he would not break the seal. All afternoon hed sat with the
parchment in his lap, watching the children at their play. He watched until the sun went down
and the evening air grew cool enough to drive them inside; then he watched the starlight on the

water. It was moonrise before he sent Hotah to fetch a candle, so he might read his letter beneath
the orange trees in the dark of night.
Obara touched her whip. Thousands are crossing the sands afoot to climb the Boneway, so
they may help Ellaria bring my father home. The septs are packed to bursting, and the red priests
have lit their temple fires. In the pillow houses women are coupling with every man who comes
to them, and refusing any coin. In Sunspear, on the Broken Arm, along the Greenblood, in the
mountains, out in the deep sand, everywhere, everywhere, women tear their hair and men cry out
in rage. The same question is heard on every tonguewhat will Doran do? What will his brother
do to avenge our murdered prince? She moved closer to the captain. And you say, he does not
wish to be disturbed!
He does not wish to be disturbed, Areo Hotah said again.
The captain of guards knew the prince he guarded. Once, long ago, a callow youth had come
from Norvos, a big broad-shouldered boy with a mop of dark hair. That hair was white now, and
his body bore the scars of many battles... but his strength remained, and he kept his longaxe
sharp, as the bearded priests had taught him. She shall not pass, he told himself, and said, The
prince is watching the children at their play. He is never to be disturbed when he is watching the
children at their play.
Hotah, said Obara Sand, you will remove yourself from my path, else I shall take that
longaxe and
Captain, came the command, from behind. Let her pass. I will speak with her. The princes
voice was hoarse.
Areo Hotah jerked his longaxe upright and stepped to one side. Obara gave him a lingering last
look and strode past, the maester hurrying at her heels. Caleotte was no more than five feet tall
and bald as an egg. His face was so smooth and fat that it was hard to tell his age, but he had
been here before the captain, had even served the princes mother. Despite his age and girth, he
was still nimble enough, and clever as they came, but meek. He is no match for any Sand Snake,
the captain thought.
In the shade of the orange trees, the prince sat in his chair with his gouty legs propped up before
him, and heavy bags beneath his eyes... though whether it was grief or gout that kept him
sleepless, Hotah could not say. Below, in the fountains and the pools, the children were still at
their play. The youngest were no more than five, the oldest nine and ten. Half were girls and half
were boys. Hotah could hear them splashing and shouting at each other in high, shrill voices. It
was not so long ago that you were one of the children in those pools, Obara, the prince said,
when she took one knee before his rolling chair.
She snorted. It has been twenty years, or near enough to make no matter. And I was not here
long. I am the whores whelp, or had you forgotten? When he did not answer, she rose again
and put her hands upon her hips. My father has been murdered.
He was slain in single combat during a trial by battle, Prince Doran said. By law, that is no
murder.
He was your brother.

He was.
What do you mean to do about his death?
The prince turned his chair laboriously to face her. Though he was but two-and-fifty, Doran
Martell seemed much older. His body was soft and shapeless beneath his linen robes, and his
legs were hard to look upon. The gout had swollen and reddened his joints grotesquely; his left
knee was an apple, his right a melon, and his toes had turned to dark red grapes, so ripe it seemed
as though a touch would burst them. Even the weight of a coverlet could make him shudder,
though he bore the pain without complaint. Silence is a princes friend, the captain had heard him
tell his daughter once. Words are like arrows, Arianne. Once loosed, you cannot call them back.
I have written to Lord Tywin
Written? If you were half the man my father was
I am not your father.
That I knew. Obaras voice was thick with contempt.
You would have me go to war.
I know better. You need not even leave your chair. Let me avenge my father. You have a host
in the Princes Pass. Lord Yronwood has another in the Boneway. Grant me the one and Nym the
other. Let her ride the kingsroad, whilst I turn the marcher lords out of their castles and hook
round to march on Oldtown.
And how could you hope to hold Oldtown?
It will be enough to sack it. The wealth of Hightower
Is it gold you want?
It is blood I want.
Lord Tywin shall deliver us the Mountains head.
And who will deliver us Lord Tywins head? The Mountain has always been his pet.
The prince gestured toward the pools. Obara, look at the children, if it please you.
It does not please me. Id get more pleasure from driving my spear into Lord Tywins belly.
Ill make him sing The Rains of Castamere as I pull his bowels out and look for gold.
Look, the prince repeated. I command you.
A few of the older children lay facedown upon the smooth pink marble, browning in the sun.
Others paddled in the sea beyond. Three were building a sand castle with a great spike that
resembled the Spear Tower of the Old Palace. A score or more had gathered in the big pool, to
watch the battles as smaller children rode through the waist-deep shallows on the shoulders of
the larger and tried to shove each other into the water. Every time a pair went down, the splash
was followed by a roar of laughter. They watched a nut-brown girl yank a towheaded boy off his
brothers shoulders to tumble him headfirst into the pool.
Your father played that same game once, as I did before him, said the prince. We had ten
years between us, so I had left the pools by the time he was old enough to play, but I would
watch him when I came to visit Mother. He was so fierce, even as a boy. Quick as a water snake.
I oft saw him topple boys much bigger than himself. He reminded me of that the day he left for

Kings Landing. He swore that he would do it one more time, else I would never have let him
go.
Let him go? Obara laughed. As if you could have stopped him. The Red Viper of Dorne
went where he would.
He did. I wish I had some word of comfort to
I did not come to you for comfort. Her voice was full of scorn. The day my father came to
claim me, my mother did not wish for me to go. She is a girl, she said, and I do not think that
she is yours. I had a thousand other men. He tossed his spear at my feet and gave my mother the
back of his hand across the face, so she began to weep. Girl or boy, we fight our battles, he
said, but the gods let us choose our weapons. He pointed to the spear, then to my mothers
tears, and I picked up the spear. I told you she was mine, my father said, and took me. My
mother drank herself to death within the year. They say that she was weeping as she died. Obara
edged closer to the prince in his chair. Let me use the spear; I ask no more.
It is a deal to ask, Obara. I shall sleep on it.
You have slept too long already.
You may be right. I will send word to you at Sunspear.
So long as the word is war. Obara turned upon her heel and strode off as angrily as she had
come, back to the stables for a fresh horse and another headlong gallop down the road.
Maester Caleotte remained behind. My prince? the little round man asked. Do your legs
hurt?
The prince smiled faintly. Is the sun hot?
Shall I fetch a draught for the pain?
No. I need my wits about me.
The maester hesitated. My prince, is it... is it prudent to allow Lady Obara to return to
Sunspear? She is certain to inflame the common people. They loved your brother well.
So did we all. He pressed his fingers to his temples. No. You are right. I must return to
Sunspear as well.
The little round man hesitated. Is that wise?
Not wise, but necessary. Best send a rider to Ricasso, and have him open my apartments in the
Tower of the Sun. Inform my daughter Arianne that I will be there on the morrow.
My little princess. The captain had missed her sorely.
You will be seen, the maester warned.
The captain understood. Two years ago, when they had left Sunspear for the peace and isolation
of the Water Gardens, Prince Dorans gout had not been half so bad. In those days he had still
walked, albeit slowly, leaning on a stick and grimacing with every step. The prince did not wish
his enemies to know how feeble he had grown, and the Old Palace and its shadow city were full
of eyes. Eyes, the captain thought, and steps he cannot climb. He would need to fly to sit atop the
Tower of the Sun.
I must be seen. Someone must pour oil on the waters. Dorne must be reminded that it still has
a prince. He smiled wanly. Old and gouty though he is.

If you return to Sunspear, you will need to give audience to Princess Myrcella, Caleotte said.
Her white knight will be with her... and you know he sends letters to his queen.
I suppose he does.
The white knight. The captain frowned. Ser Arys had come to Dorne to attend his own princess,
as Areo Hotah had once come with his. Even their names sounded oddly alike: Areo and Arys.
Yet there the likeness ended. The captain had left Norvos and its bearded priests, but Ser Arys
Oakheart still served the Iron Throne. Hotah had felt a certain sadness whenever he saw the man
in the long snowy cloak, the times the prince had sent him down to Sunspear. One day, he
sensed, the two of them would fight; on that day Oakheart would die, with the captains longaxe
crashing through his skull. He slid his hand along the smooth ashen shaft of his axe and
wondered if that day was drawing nigh.
The afternoon is almost done, the prince was saying. We will wait for morn. See that my
litter is ready by first light.
As you command. Caleotte bobbed a bow. The captain stood aside to let him pass, and
listened to his footsteps dwindle.
Captain? The princes voice was soft.
Hotah strode forward, one hand wrapped about his longaxe. The ash felt as smooth as a
womans skin against his palm. When he reached the rolling chair he thumped its butt down hard
to announce his presence, but the prince had eyes only for the children. Did you have brothers,
captain? he asked. Back in Norvos, when you were young? Sisters?
Both, Hotah said. Two brothers, three sisters. I was the youngest. The youngest, and
unwanted. Another mouth to feed, a big boy who ate too much and soon outgrew his clothes.
Small wonder they had sold him to the bearded priests.
I was the oldest, the prince said, and yet I am the last. After Mors and Olyvar died in their
cradles, I gave up hope of brothers. I was nine when Elia came, a squire in service at Salt Shore.
When the raven arrived with word that my mother had been brought to bed a month too soon, I
was old enough to understand that meant the child would not live. Even when Lord Gargalen
told me that I had a sister, I assured him that she must shortly die. Yet she lived, by the Mothers
mercy. And a year later Oberyn arrived, squalling and kicking. I was a man grown when they
were playing in these pools. Yet here I sit, and they are gone.
Areo Hotah did not know what to say to that. He was only a captain of guards, and still a
stranger to this land and its seven-faced god, even after all these years. Serve. Obey. Protect. He
had sworn those vows at six-and-ten, the day he wed his axe. Simple vows for simple men, the
bearded priests had said. He had not been trained to counsel grieving princes.
He was still groping for some words to say when another orange fell with a heavy splat, no
more than a foot from where the prince was seated. Doran winced at the sound, as if somehow it
had hurt him. Enough, he sighed, it is enough. Leave me, Areo. Let me watch the children for
a few more hours.
When the sun set the air grew cool and the children went inside in search of supper, still the
prince remained beneath his orange trees, looking out over the still pools and the sea beyond. A

serving man brought him a bowl of purple olives, with flatbread, cheese, and chickpea paste. He
ate a bit of it, and drank a cup of the sweet, heavy strongwine that he loved. When it was empty,
he filled it once again. Sometimes in the deep black hours of the morning sleep found him in his
chair. Only then did the captain roll him down the moonlit gallery, past a row of fluted pillars
and through a graceful archway, to a great bed with crisp cool linen sheets in a chamber by the
sea. Doran groaned as the captain moved him, but the gods were good and he did not wake.
The captains sleeping cell adjoined his princes. He sat upon the narrow bed and found his
whetstone and oilcloth in their niche, and set to work. Keep your longaxe sharp, the bearded
priests had told him, the day they branded him. He always did.
As he honed the axe, Hotah thought of Norvos, the high city on the hill and the low beside the
river. He could still recall the sounds of the three bells, the way that Nooms deep peals set his
very bones to shuddering, the proud strong voice of Narrah, sweet Nyels silvery laughter. The
taste of wintercake filled his mouth again, rich with ginger and pine nuts and bits of cherry, with
nahsa to wash it down, fermented goats milk served in an iron cup and laced with honey. He
saw his mother in her dress with the squirrel collar, the one she wore but once each year, when
they went to see the bears dance down the Sinners Steps. And he smelled the stench of burning
hair as the bearded priest touched the brand to the center of his chest. The pain had been so fierce
that he thought his heart might stop, yet Areo Hotah had not flinched. The hair had never grown
back over the axe.
Only when both edges were sharp enough to shave with did the captain lay his ash-and-iron
wife down on the bed. Yawning, he pulled off his soiled clothes, tossed them on the floor, and
stretched out on his straw-stuffed mattress. Thinking of the brand had made it itch, so he had to
scratch himself before he closed his eyes. I should have gathered up the oranges that fell, he
thought, and went to sleep dreaming of the tart sweet taste of them, and the sticky feel of the red
juice on his fingers.
Dawn came too soon. Outside the stables the smallest of the three horse litters stood ready, the
cedarwood litter with the red silk draperies. The captain chose twenty spears to accompany it,
out of the thirty who were posted at the Water Gardens; the rest would stay to guard the grounds
and children, some of whom were the sons and daughters of great lords and wealthy merchants.
Although the prince had spoken of departing at first light, Areo Hotah knew that he would
dawdle. Whilst the maester helped Doran Martell to bathe and bandaged up his swollen joints in
linen wraps soaked with soothing lotions, the captain donned a shirt of copper scales as befit his
rank, and a billowing cloak of dun-and-yellow sandsilk to keep the sun off the copper. The day
promised to be hot, and the captain had long ago discarded the heavy horsehair cape and studded
leather tunic he had worn in Norvos, which were like to cook a man in Dorne. He had kept his
iron halfhelm, with its crest of sharpened spikes, but now he wore it wrapped in orange silk,
weaving the cloth in and around the spikes. Elsewise the sun beating down on the metal would
have his head pounding before they saw the palace.
The prince was still not ready to depart. He had decided to break his fast before he went, with a
blood orange and a plate of gulls eggs diced with bits of ham and fiery peppers. Then nought

would do but he must say farewell to several of the children who had become especial favorites:
the Dalt boy and Lady Blackmonts brood and the round-faced orphan girl whose father had sold
cloth and spices up and down the Greenblood. Doran kept a splendid Myrish blanket over his
legs as he spoke with them, to spare the young ones the sight of his swollen, bandaged joints.
It was midday before they got under way; the prince in his litter, Maester Caleotte riding on a
donkey, the rest afoot. Five spearmen walked ahead and five behind, with five more flanking the
litter to either side. Areo Hotah himself took his familiar place at the left hand of the prince,
resting his longaxe on a shoulder as he walked. The road from Sunspear to the Water Gardens
ran beside the sea, so they had a cool fresh breeze to soothe them as they made their way across a
sparse red-brown land of stone and sand and twisted stunted trees.
Halfway there, the second Sand Snake caught them.
She appeared suddenly upon a dune, mounted on a golden sand steed with a mane like fine
white silk. Even ahorse, the Lady Nym looked graceful, dressed all in shimmering lilac robes and
a great silk cape of cream and copper that lifted at every gust of wind, and made her look as if
she might take flight. Nymeria Sand was five-and-twenty, and slender as a willow. Her straight
black hair, worn in a long braid bound up with red-gold wire, made a widows peak above her
dark eyes, just as her fathers had. With her high cheekbones, full lips, and milk-pale skin, she
had all the beauty that her elder sister lacked... but Obaras mother had been an Oldtown whore,
whilst Nym was born from the noblest blood of old Volantis. A dozen mounted spearmen tailed
her, their round shields gleaming in the sun. They followed her down the dune.
The prince had tied back the curtains on his litter, the better to enjoy the breeze blowing off the
sea. Lady Nym fell in beside him, slowing her pretty golden mare to match the litters pace.
Well met, Uncle, she sang out, as if it had been chance that brought her here. May I ride with
you to Sunspear? The captain was on the opposite side of the litter from Lady Nym, yet he
could hear every word she said.
I would be glad of it, Prince Doran replied, though he did not sound glad to the captains ears.
Gout and grief make poor companions on the road. By which the captain knew him to mean
that every pebble drove a spike through his swollen joints.
The gout I cannot help, she said, but my father had no use for grief. Vengeance was more to
his taste. Is it true that Gregor Clegane admitted slaying Elia and her children?
He roared out his guilt for all the court to hear, the prince admitted. Lord Tywin has
promised us his head.
And a Lannister always pays his debts, said Lady Nym, yet it seems to me that Lord Tywin
means to pay us with our own coin. I had a bird from our sweet Ser Daemon, who swears my
father tickled that monster more than once as they fought. If so, Ser Gregor is as good as dead,
and no thanks to Tywin Lannister.
The prince grimaced. Whether it was from the pain of gout or his nieces words, the captain
could not say. It may be so.
May be? I say tis.
Obara would have me go to war.

Nym laughed. Yes, she wants to set the torch to Oldtown. She hates that city as much as our
little sister loves it.
And you?
Nym glanced over a shoulder, to where her companions rode a dozen lengths behind. I was
abed with the Fowler twins when the word reached me, the captain heard her say. You know
the Fowler words? Let Me Soar! That is all I ask of you. Let me soar, Uncle. I need no mighty
host, only one sweet sister.
Obara?
Tyene. Obara is too loud. Tyene is so sweet and gentle that no man will suspect her. Obara
would make Oldtown our fathers funeral pyre, but I am not so greedy. Four lives will suffice for
me. Lord Tywins golden twins, as payment for Elias children. The old lion, for Elia herself.
And last of all the little king, for my father.
The boy has never wronged us.
The boy is a bastard born of treason, incest, and adultery, if Lord Stannis can be believed.
The playful tone had vanished from her voice, and the captain found himself watching her
through narrowed eyes. Her sister Obara wore her whip upon her hip and carried a spear where
any man could see it. Lady Nym was no less deadly, though she kept her knives well hidden.
Only royal blood can wash out my fathers murder.
Oberyn died during single combat, fighting in a matter that was none of his concern. I do not
call that murder.
Call it what you will. We sent them the finest man in Dorne, and they are sending back a bag
of bones.
He went beyond anything I asked of him. Take the measure of this boy king and his council,
and make note of their strengths and weaknesses, I told him, on the terrace. We were eating
oranges. Find us friends, if there are any to be found. Learn what you can of Elias end, but see
that you do not provoke Lord Tywin unduly, those were my words to him. Oberyn laughed, and
said, When have I provoked any man... unduly? You would do better to warn the Lannisters
against provoking me. He wanted justice for Elia, but he would not wait
He waited ten-and-seven years, the Lady Nym broke in. Were it you theyd killed, my father
would have led his banners north before your corpse was cold. Were it you, the spears would be
falling thick as rain upon the marches now.
I do not doubt it.
No more should you doubt this, my princemy sisters and I shall not wait ten-and-seven
years for our vengeance. She put her spurs into the mare and she was off, galloping toward
Sunspear with her tail in hot pursuit.
The prince leaned back against his pillows and closed his eyes, but Hotah knew he did not
sleep. He is in pain. For a moment he considered calling Maester Caleotte up to the litter, but if
Prince Doran had wanted him, he would have called himself.
The shadows of the afternoon were long and dark and the sun was as red and swollen as the
princes joints before they glimpsed the towers of Sunspear to the east. First the slender Spear

Tower, a hundred-and-a-half feet tall and crowned with a spear of gilded steel that added another
thirty feet to its height; then the mighty Tower of the Sun, with its dome of gold and leaded
glass; last the dun-colored Sandship, looking like some monstrous dromond that had washed
ashore and turned to stone.
Only three leagues of coast road divided Sunspear from the Water Gardens, yet they were two
different worlds. There children frolicked naked in the sun, music played in tiled courtyards, and
the air was sharp with the smell of lemons and blood oranges. Here the air smelled of dust,
sweat, and smoke, and the nights were alive with the babble of voices. In place of the pink
marble of the Water Gardens, Sunspear was built from mud and straw, and colored brown and
dun. The ancient stronghold of House Martell stood at the easternmost end of a little jut of stone
and sand, surrounded on three sides by the sea. To the west, in the shadows of Sunspears
massive walls, mud-brick shops and windowless hovels clung to the castle like barnacles to a
galleys hull. Stables and inns and winesinks and pillow houses had grown up west of those,
many enclosed by walls of their own, and yet more hovels had risen beneath those walls. And so
and so and so, as the bearded priests would say. Compared to Tyrosh or Myr or Great Norvos,
the shadow city was no more than a town, yet it was the nearest thing to a true city that these
Dornish had.
Lady Nyms arrival had preceded theirs by some hours, and no doubt she had warned the
guards of their coming, for the Threefold Gate was open when they reached it. Only here were
the gates lined up one behind the other to allow visitors to pass beneath all three of the Winding
Walls directly to the Old Palace, without first making their way through miles of narrow alleys,
hidden courts, and noisy bazaars.
Prince Doran had closed the draperies of his litter as soon as the Spear Tower came in sight, yet
still the smallfolk shouted out to him as the litter passed. The Sand Snakes have stirred them to a
boil, the captain thought uneasily. They crossed the squalor of the outer crescent and went
through the second gate. Beyond, the wind stank of tar and salt water and rotting seaweed, and
the crowd grew thicker with every step. Make way for Prince Doran! Areo Hotah boomed out,
thumping the butt of his longaxe on the bricks. Make way for the Prince of Dorne!
The prince is dead! a woman shrilled behind him.
To spears! a man bellowed from a balcony.
Doran! called some highborn voice. To the spears!
Hotah gave up looking for the speakers; the press was too thick, and a third of them were
shouting. To spears! Vengeance for the Viper! By the time they reached the third gate, the
guards were shoving people aside to clear a path for the princes litter, and the crowd was
throwing things. One ragged boy darted past the spearmen with a half-rotten pomegranate in one
hand, but when he saw Areo Hotah in his path, with longaxe at the ready, he let the fruit fall
unthrown and beat a quick retreat. Others farther back let fly with lemons, limes, and oranges,
crying War! War! To the spears! One of the guards was hit in the eye with a lemon, and the
captain himself had an orange splatter off his foot.

No answer came from within the litter. Doran Martell stayed cloaked within his silken walls
until the thicker walls of the castle swallowed all of them, and the portcullis came down behind
them with a rattling crunch. The sounds of shouting dwindled away slowly. Princess Arianne
was waiting in the outer ward to greet her father, with half the court about her: the old blind
seneschal Ricasso, Ser Manfrey Martell the castellan, young Maester Myles with his grey robes
and silky perfumed beard, twoscore of Dornish knights in flowing linen of half a hundred hues.
Little Myrcella Baratheon stood with her septa and Ser Arys of the Kingsguard, sweltering in his
white-enameled scales.
Princess Arianne strode to the litter on snakeskin sandals laced up to her thighs. Her hair was a
mane of jet-black ringlets that fell to the small of her back, and around her brow was a band of
copper suns. She is still a little thing, the captain thought. Where the Sand Snakes were tall,
Arianne took after her mother, who stood but five foot two. Yet beneath her jeweled girdle and
loose layers of flowing purple silk and yellow samite she had a womans body, lush and roundly
curved. Father, she announced as the curtains opened, Sunspear rejoices at your return.
Yes, I heard the joy. The prince smiled wanly and cupped his daughters cheek with a
reddened, swollen hand. You look well. Captain, be so good as to help me down from here.
Hotah slid his longaxe into its sling across his back and gathered the prince into his arms,
tenderly so as not to jar his swollen joints. Even so, Doran Martell bit back a gasp of pain.
I have commanded the cooks to prepare a feast for this evening, Arianne said, with all your
favorite dishes.
I fear I could not do them justice. The prince glanced slowly around the yard. I do not see
Tyene.
She begs a private word. I sent her to the throne room to await your coming.
The prince sighed. Very well. Captain? The sooner I am done with this, the sooner I may rest.
Hotah bore him up the long stone steps of the Tower of the Sun, to the great round chamber
beneath the dome, where the last light of the afternoon was slanting down through thick windows
of many-colored glass to dapple the pale marble with diamonds of half a hundred colors. There
the third Sand Snake awaited them.
She was sitting cross-legged on a pillow beneath the raised dais where the high seats stood, but
she rose as they entered, dressed in a clinging gown of pale blue samite with sleeves of Myrish
lace that made her look as innocent as the Maid herself. In one hand was a piece of embroidery
she had been working on, in the other a pair of golden needles. Her hair was gold as well, and
her eyes were deep blue pools... and yet somehow they reminded the captain of her fathers eyes,
though Oberyns had been as black as night. All of Prince Oberyns daughters have his viper
eyes, Hotah realized suddenly. The color does not matter.
Uncle, said Tyene Sand, I have been waiting for you.
Captain, help me to the high seat.
There were two seats on the dais, near twin to one another, save that one had the Martell spear
inlaid in gold upon its back, whilst the other bore the blazing Rhoynish sun that had flown from

the masts of Nymerias ships when first they came to Dorne. The captain placed the prince
beneath the spear and stepped away.
Does it hurt so much? Lady Tyenes voice was gentle, and she looked as sweet as summer
strawberries. Her mother had been a septa, and Tyene had an air of almost otherworldy
innocence about her. Is there aught that I might do to ease your pain?
Say what you would and let me rest. I am weary, Tyene.
I made this for you, Uncle. Tyene unfolded the piece shed been embroidering. It showed her
father, Prince Oberyn, mounted on a sand steed and armored all in red, smiling. When I finish,
it is yours, to help you remember him.
I am not like to forget your father.
That is good to know. Many have wondered.
Lord Tywin has promised us the Mountains head.
He is so kind... but a headsmans sword is no fit end for brave Ser Gregor. We have prayed so
long for his death, it is only fair that he pray for it as well. I know the poison that my father used,
and there is none slower or more agonizing. Soon we may hear the Mountain screaming, even
here in Sunspear.
Prince Doran sighed. Obara cries to me for war. Nym will be content with murder. And you?
War, said Tyene, though not my sisters war. Dornishmen fight best at home, so I say let us
hone our spears and wait. When the Lannisters and the Tyrells come down on us, we shall bleed
them in the passes and bury them beneath the blowing sands, as we have a hundred times
before.
If they should come down on us.
Oh, but they must, or see the realm riven once more, as it was before we wed the dragons.
Father told me so. He said we had the Imp to thank, for sending us Princess Myrcella. She is so
pretty, dont you think? I wish that I had curls like hers. She was made to be a queen, just like
her mother. Dimples bloomed in Tyenes cheeks. I would be honored to arrange the wedding,
and to see to the making of the crowns as well. Trystane and Myrcella are so innocent, I thought
perhaps white gold... with emeralds, to match Myrcellas eyes. Oh, diamonds and pearls would
serve as well, so long as the children are wed and crowned. Then we need only hail Myrcella as
the First of Her Name, Queen of the Andals, the Rhoynar, and the First Men, and lawful heir to
the Seven Kingdoms of Westeros, and wait for the lions to come.
The lawful heir? The prince snorted.
She is older than her brother, explained Tyene, as if he were some fool. By law the Iron
Throne should pass to her.
By Dornish law.
When good King Daeron wed Princess Myriah and brought us into his kingdom, it was agreed
that Dornish law would always rule in Dorne. And Myrcella is in Dorne, as it happens.
So she is. His tone was grudging. Let me think on it.
Tyene grew cross. You think too much, Uncle.
Do I?

Father said so.
Oberyn thought too little.
Some men think because they are afraid to do.
There is a difference between fear and caution.
Oh, I must pray that I never see you frightened, Uncle. You might forget to breathe. She
raised a hand...
The captain brought the butt of his longaxe down upon the marble with a thump. My lady, you
presume. Step from the dais, if it please you.
I meant no harm, Captain. I love my uncle, as I know he loved my father. Tyene went to one
knee before the prince. I have said all I came to say, Uncle. Forgive me if I gave offense; my
heart is broken all to pieces. Do I still have your love?
Always.
Give me your blessing, then, and I shall go.
Doran hesitated half a heartbeat before placing his hand on his nieces head. Be brave, child.
Oh, how not? I am his daughter.
No sooner had she taken her leave than Maester Caleotte hurried to the dais. My prince, she
did not... here, let me see your hand. He examined the palm first, then gently turned it upside
down to sniff at the back of the princes fingers. No, good. That is good. There are no scratches,
so...
The prince withdrew his hand. Maester, could I trouble you for some milk of the poppy? A
thimble cup will suffice.
The poppy. Yes, to be sure.
Now, I think, Doran Martell urged gently, and Caleotte scurried to the stairs.
Outside the sun had set. The light within the dome was the blue of dusk, and all the diamonds
on the floor were dying. The prince sat in his high seat beneath the Martell spear, his face pale
with pain. After a long silence he turned to Areo Hotah. Captain, he said, how loyal are my
guards?
Loyal. The captain did not know what else to say.
All of them? Or some?
They are good men. Good Dornishmen. They will do as I command. He thumped his longaxe
on the floor. I will bring the head of any man who would betray you.
I want no heads. I want obedience.
You have it. Serve. Obey. Protect. Simple vows for a simple man. How many men are
needed?
I will leave that for you to decide. It may be that a few good men will serve us better than a
score. I want this done as quickly and as quietly as possible, with no blood spilled.
Quick and quiet and bloodless, aye. What is your command?
You will find my brothers daughters, take them into custody, and confine them in the cells
atop the Spear Tower.

The Sand Snakes? The captains throat was dry. All... all eight, my prince? The little ones,
also?
The prince considered. Ellarias girls are too young to be a danger, but there are those who
might seek to use them against me. It would be best to keep them safe in hand. Yes, the little
ones as well... but first secure Tyene, Nymeria, and Obara.
As my prince commands. His heart was troubled. My little princess will mislike this. What
of Sarella? She is a woman grown, almost twenty.
Unless she returns to Dorne, theres naught I can do about Sarella save pray that she shows
more sense than her sisters. Leave her to her... game. Gather up the others. I shall not sleep until
I know that they are safe and under guard.
It will be done. The captain hesitated. When this is known in the streets, the common folk
will howl.
All Dorne will howl, said Doran Martell in a tired voice. I only pray Lord Tywin hears them
in Kings Landing, so he might know what a loyal friend he has in Sunspear.

CERSEI
She dreamt she sat the Iron Throne, high above them all.
The courtiers were brightly colored mice below. Great lords and proud ladies knelt before her.
Bold young knights laid their swords at her feet and pleaded for her favors, and the queen smiled
down at them. Until the dwarf appeared as if from nowhere, pointing at her and howling with
laughter. The lords and ladies began to chuckle too, hiding their smiles behind their hands. Only
then did the queen realize she was naked.
Horrified, she tried to cover herself with her hands. The barbs and blades of the Iron Throne bit
into her flesh as she crouched to hide her shame. Blood ran red down her legs, as steel teeth
gnawed at her buttocks. When she tried to stand, her foot slipped through a gap in the twisted
metal. The more she struggled the more the throne engulfed her, tearing chunks of flesh from her
breasts and belly, slicing at her arms and legs until they were slick and red, glistening.
And all the while her brother capered below, laughing.
His merriment still echoed in her ears when she felt a light touch on her shoulder, and woke
suddenly. For half a heartbeat the hand seemed part of the nightmare, and Cersei cried out, but it
was only Senelle. The maids face was white and frightened.
We are not alone, the queen realized. Shadows loomed around her bed, tall shapes with
chainmail glimmering beneath their cloaks. Armed men had no business here. Where are my
guards? Her bedchamber was dark, but for the lantern one of the intruders held on high. I must
show no fear. Cersei pushed back sleep-tousled hair, and said, What do you want of me? A
man stepped into the lantern light, and she saw his cloak was white. Jaime? I dreamt of one
brother, but the other has come to wake me.
Your Grace. The voice was not her brothers. The Lord Commander said come get you. His
hair curled, as Jaimes did, but her brothers hair was beaten gold, like hers, where this mans
was black and oily. She stared at him, confused, as he muttered about a privy and a crossbow,
and said her fathers name. I am dreaming still, Cersei thought. I have not woken, nor has my
nightmare ended. Tyrion will creep out from under the bed soon and begin to laugh at me.
But that was folly. Her dwarf brother was down in the black cells, condemned to die this very
day. She looked down at her hands, turning them over to make certain all her fingers were still
there. When she ran a hand down her arm the skin was covered with gooseprickles, but
unbroken. There were no cuts on her legs, no gashes on the soles of her feet. A dream, thats all
it was, a dream. I drank too much last night, these fears are only humors born of wine. I will be
the one laughing, come dusk. My children will be safe, Tommens throne will be secure, and my
twisted little valonqar will be short a head and rotting.
Jocelyn Swyft was at her elbow, pressing a cup on her. Cersei took a sip: water, mixed with
lemon squeezings, so tart she spit it out. She could hear the night wind rattling the shutters, and
she saw with a strange sharp clarity. Jocelyn was trembling like a leaf, as frightened as Senelle.
Ser Osmund Kettleblack loomed over her. Behind him stood Ser Boros Blount, with a lantern. At

the door were Lannister guardsmen with gilded lions shining on the crests of their helmets. They
looked afraid as well. Can it be? the queen wondered. Can it be true?
She rose, and let Senelle slip a bedrobe over her shoulders to hide her nakedness. Cersei belted
it herself, her fingers stiff and clumsy. My lord father keeps guards about him, night and day,
she said. Her tongue felt thick. She took another swallow of lemon water and sloshed it round
her mouth to freshen her breath. A moth had gotten into the lantern Ser Boros was holding; she
could hear it buzzing and see the shadow of its wings as it beat against the glass.
The guards were at their posts, Your Grace, said Osmund Kettleblack. We found a hidden
door behind the hearth. A secret passage. The Lord Commanders gone down to see where it
goes.
Jaime? Terror seized her, sudden as a storm. Jaime should be with the king...
The lads not been harmed. Ser Jaime sent a dozen men to look in on him. His Grace is
sleeping peaceful.
Let him have a sweeter dream than mine, and a kinder waking. Who is with the king?
Ser Loras has that honor, if it please you.
It did not please her. The Tyrells were only stewards that the dragon-kings had upjumped far
above their station. Their vanity was exceeded only by their ambition. Ser Loras might be as
pretty as a maidens dream, but underneath his white cloak he was Tyrell to the bone. For all she
knew, this nights foul fruit had been planted and nurtured in Highgarden.
But that was a suspicion she dare not speak aloud. Allow me a moment to dress. Ser Osmund,
you shall accompany me to the Tower of the Hand. Ser Boros, roust the gaolers and make certain
the dwarf is still in his cell. She would not say his name. He would never have found the
courage to lift a hand against Father, she told herself, but she had to be certain.
As Your Grace commands. Blount surrendered the lantern to Ser Osmund. Cersei was not
displeased to see the back of him. Father should never have restored him to the white. The man
had proved himself a craven.
By the time they left Maegors Holdfast, the sky had turned a deep cobalt blue, though the stars
still shone. All but one, Cersei thought. The bright star of the west has fallen, and the nights will
be darker now. She paused upon the drawbridge that spanned the dry moat, gazing down at the
spikes below. They would not dare lie to me about such a thing. Who found him?
One of his guards, said Ser Osmund. Lum. He felt a call of nature, and found his lordship in
the privy.
No, that cannot be. That is not the way a lion dies. The queen felt strangely calm. She
remembered the first time she had lost a tooth, when she was just a little girl. It hadnt hurt, but
the hole in her mouth felt so odd she could not stop touching it with her tongue. Now there is a
hole in the world where Father stood, and holes want filling.
If Tywin Lannister was truly dead, no one was safe... least of all her son upon his throne. When
the lion falls the lesser beasts move in: the jackals and the vultures and the feral dogs. They
would try to push her aside, as they always had. She would need to move quickly, as she had
when Robert died. This might be the work of Stannis Baratheon, through some catspaw. It could

well be the prelude to another attack upon the city. She hoped it was. Let him come. I will smash
him, just as Father did, and this time he will die. Stannis did not frighten her, no more than Mace
Tyrell did. No one frightened her. She was a daughter of the Rock, a lion. There will be no more
talk of forcing me to wed again. Casterly Rock was hers now, and all the power of House
Lannister. No one would ever disregard her again. Even when Tommen had no further need of a
regent, the Lady of Casterly Rock would remain a power in the land.
The rising sun had painted the tower tops a vivid red, but beneath the walls the night still
huddled. The outer castle was so hushed that she could have believed all its people dead. They
should be. It is not fitting for Tywin Lannister to die alone. Such a man deserves a retinue to
attend his needs in hell.
Four spearmen in red cloaks and lion-crested helms were posted at the door of the Tower of the
Hand. No one is to enter or leave without my permission, she told them. The command came
easily to her. My father had steel in his voice as well.
Within the tower, the smoke from the torches irritated her eyes, but Cersei did not weep, no
more than her father would have. I am the only true son he ever had. Her heels scraped against
the stone as she climbed, and she could still hear the moth fluttering wildly inside Ser Osmunds
lantern. Die, the queen thought at it, in irritation, fly into the flame and be done with it.
Two more red-cloaked guardsmen stood atop the steps. Red Lester muttered a condolence as
she passed. The queens breath was coming fast and short, and she could feel her heart fluttering
in her chest. The steps, she told herself, this cursed tower has too many steps. She had half a
mind to tear it down.
The hall was full of fools speaking in whispers, as if Lord Tywin were asleep and they were
afraid to wake him. Guards and servants alike shrank back before her, mouths flapping. She saw
their pink gums and waggling tongues, but their words made no more sense than the buzzing of
the moth. What are they doing here? How did they know? By rights they should have called her
first. She was the Queen Regent, had they forgotten that?
Before the Hands bedchamber stood Ser Meryn Trant in his white armor and cloak. The visor
of his helm was open, and the bags beneath his eyes made him look still half-asleep. Clear these
people away, Cersei told him. Is my father in the privy?
They carried him back to his bed, mlady. Ser Meryn pushed the door open for her to enter.
Morning light slashed through the shutters to paint golden bars upon the rushes strewn across
the floor of the bedchamber. Her uncle Kevan was on his knees beside the bed, trying to pray,
but he could scarcely get the words out. Guardsmen clustered near the hearth. The secret door
that Ser Osmund had spoken of gaped open behind the ashes, no bigger than an oven. A man
would need to crawl. But Tyrion is only half a man. The thought made her angry. No, the dwarf
is locked in a black cell. This could not be his work. Stannis, she told herself, Stannis was behind
it. He still has adherents in the city. Him, or the Tyrells...
There had always been talk of secret passages within the Red Keep. Maegor the Cruel was
supposed to have killed the men who built the castle to keep the knowledge of them secret. How
many other bedchambers have hidden doors? Cersei had a sudden vision of the dwarf crawling

out from behind a tapestry in Tommens bedchamber with blade in hand. Tommen is well
guarded, she told herself. But Lord Tywin had been well guarded too.
For a moment she did not recognize the dead man. He had hair like her father, yes, but this was
some other man, surely, a smaller man, and much older. His bedrobe was hiked up around his
chest, leaving him naked below the waist. The quarrel had taken him in his groin between his
navel and his manhood, and was sunk so deep that only the fletching showed. His pubic hair was
stiff with dried blood. More was congealing in his navel.
The smell of him made her wrinkle her nose. Take the quarrel out of him, she commanded.
This is the Kings Hand! And my father. My lord father. Should I scream and tear my hair?
They said Catelyn Stark had clawed her own face to bloody ribbons when the Freys slew her
precious Robb. Would you like that, Father? she wanted to ask him. Or would you want me to be
strong? Did you weep for your own father? Her grandfather had died when she was only a year
old, but she knew the story. Lord Tytos had grown very fat, and his heart burst one day when he
was climbing the steps to his mistress. Her father was off in Kings Landing when it happened,
serving as the Mad Kings Hand. Lord Tywin was often away in Kings Landing when she and
Jaime were young. If he wept when they brought him word of his fathers death, he did it where
no one could see the tears.
The queen could feel her nails digging into her palms. How could you leave him like this? My
father was Hand to three kings, as great a man as ever strode the Seven Kingdoms. The bells
must ring for him, as they rang for Robert. He must be bathed and dressed as befits his stature, in
ermine and cloth-of-gold and crimson silk. Where is Pycelle? Where is Pycelle? She turned to
the guardsmen. Puckens, bring Grand Maester Pycelle. He must see to Lord Tywin.
Hes seen him, Your Grace, said Puckens. He came and saw and went, to summon the silent
sisters.
They sent for me last. The realization made her almost too angry for words. And Pycelle runs
off to send a message rather than soil his soft, wrinkled hands. The man is useless. Find Maester
Ballabar, she commanded. Find Maester Frenken. Any of them. Puckens and Shortear ran to
obey. Where is my brother?
Down the tunnel. Theres a shaft, with iron rungs set in the stone. Ser Jaime went to see how
deep it goes.
He has only one hand, she wanted to shout at them. One of you should have gone. He has no
business climbing ladders. The men who murdered Father might be down there, waiting for him.
Her twin had always been too rash, and it would seem that even losing a hand had not taught him
caution. She was about to command the guards to go down after him and bring him back when
Puckens and Shortear returned with a grey-haired man between them. Your Grace, said
Shortear, this here claims he was a maester.
The man bowed low. How may I serve Your Grace?
His face was vaguely familiar, though Cersei could not place him. Old, but not so old as
Pycelle. This one has some strength in him still. He was tall, though slightly stooped, with
crinkles around his bold blue eyes. His throat is naked. You wear no maesters chain.

It was taken from me. My name is Qyburn, if it please Your Grace. I treated your brothers
hand.
His stump, you mean. She remembered him now. He had come with Jaime from Harrenhal.
I could not save Ser Jaimes hand, it is true. My arts saved his arm, however, mayhaps his very
life. The Citadel took my chain, but they could not take my knowledge.
You may suffice, she decided. If you fail me you will lose more than a chain, I promise you.
Remove the quarrel from my fathers belly and make him ready for the silent sisters.
As my queen commands. Qyburn went to the bedside, paused, looked back. And how shall I
deal with the girl, Your Grace?
Girl? Cersei had overlooked the second body. She strode to the bed, flung aside the heap of
bloody coverlets, and there she was, naked, cold, and pink... save for her face, which had turned
as black as Joffs had at his wedding feast. A chain of linked golden hands was half-buried in the
flesh of her throat, twisted so tight that it had broken the skin. Cersei hissed like an angry cat.
What is she doing here?
We found her there, Your Grace, said Shortear. Its the Imps whore. As if that explained
why she was here.
My lord father had no use for whores, she thought. After our mother died he never touched a
woman. She gave the guardsman a chilly look. This is not... when Lord Tywins father died he
returned to Casterly Rock to find a... a woman of this sort... bedecked in his lady mothers
jewels, wearing one of her gowns. He stripped them off her, and all else as well. For a fortnight
she was paraded naked through the streets of Lannisport, to confess to every man she met that
she was a thief and a harlot. That was how Lord Tywin Lannister dealt with whores. He never...
this woman was here for some other purpose, not for...
Perhaps his lordship was questioning the girl about her mistress, Qyburn suggested. Sansa
Stark vanished the night the king was murdered, I have heard.
Thats so. Cersei seized on the suggestion eagerly. He was questioning her, to be sure. There
can be no doubt. She could see Tyrion leering, his mouth twisted into a monkeys grin beneath
the ruin of his nose. And what better way to question her than naked, with her legs well spread?
the dwarf whispered. Thats how I like to question her too.
The queen turned away. I will not look at her. Suddenly it was too much even to be in the same
room as the dead woman. She pushed past Qyburn, out into the hall.
Ser Osmund had been joined by his brothers Osney and Osfryd. There is a dead woman in the
Hands bedchamber, Cersei told the three Kettleblacks. No one is ever to know that she was
here.
Aye, mlady. Ser Osney had faint scratches on his cheek where another of Tyrions whores
had clawed him. And what shall we do with her?
Feed her to your dogs. Keep her for a bedmate. What do I care? She was never here. Ill have
the tongue of any man who dares to say she was. Do you understand me?
Osney and Osfryd exchanged a look. Aye, Your Grace.

She followed them back inside and watched as they bundled the girl up in her fathers bloody
blankets. Shae, her name was Shae. They had last spoken the night before the dwarfs trial by
combat, after that smiling Dornish snake offered to champion him. Shae had been asking about
some jewels Tyrion had given her, and certain promises Cersei might have made, a manse in the
city and a knight to marry her. The queen made it plain that the whore would have nothing of her
until she told them where Sansa Stark had gone. You were her maid. Do you expect me to
believe that you knew nothing of her plans? she had said. Shae left in tears.
Ser Osfryd slung the bundled corpse up over his shoulder. I want that chain, Cersei said. See
that you do not scratch the gold. Osfryd nodded and started toward the door. No, not through
the yard. She gestured toward the secret passage. Theres a shaft down to the dungeons. That
way.
As Ser Osfryd went down on one knee before the hearth, the light brightened within, and the
queen heard noises. Jaime emerged bent over like an old woman, his boots kicking up puffs of
soot from Lord Tywins last fire. Get out of my way, he told the Kettleblacks.
Cersei rushed toward him. Did you find them? Did you find the killers? How many were
there? Surely there had been more than one. One man alone could not have killed her father.
Her twins face had a haggard look. The shaft goes down to a chamber where half a dozen
tunnels meet. Theyre closed off by iron gates, chained and locked. I need to find keys. He
glanced around the bedchamber. Whoever did this might still be lurking in the walls. Its a maze
back there, and dark.
She imagined Tyrion creeping between the walls like some monstrous rat. No. You are being
silly. The dwarf is in his cell. Take hammers to the walls. Knock this tower down, if you must. I
want them found. Whoever did this. I want them killed.
Jaime hugged her, his good hand pressing against the small of her back. He smelled of ash, but
the morning sun was in his hair, giving it a golden glow. She wanted to draw his face to hers for
a kiss. Later, she told herself, later he will come to me, for comfort. We are his heirs, Jaime,
she whispered. It will be up to us to finish his work. You must take Fathers place as Hand. You
see that now, surely. Tommen will need you...
He pushed away from her and raised his arm, forcing his stump into her face. A Hand without
a hand? A bad jape, sister. Dont ask me to rule.
Their uncle heard the rebuff. Qyburn as well, and the Kettleblacks, wrestling their bundle
through the ashes. Even the guardsmen heard, Puckens and Hoke the Horseleg and Shortear. It
will be all over the castle by nightfall. Cersei felt the heat rising up her cheeks. Rule? I said
naught of ruling. I shall rule until my son comes of age.
I dont know who I pity more, her brother said. Tommen, or the Seven Kingdoms.
She slapped him. Jaimes arm rose to catch the blow, cat-quick... but this cat had a cripples
stump in place of a right hand. Her fingers left red marks on his cheek.
The sound brought their uncle to his feet. Your father lies here dead. Have the decency to take
your quarrel outside.

Jaime inclined his head in apology. Forgive us, Uncle. My sister is sick with grief. She forgets
herself.
She wanted to slap him again for that. I must have been mad to think he could be Hand. She
would sooner abolish the office. When had a Hand ever brought her anything but grief? Jon
Arryn put Robert Baratheon in her bed, and before he died hed begun sniffing about her and
Jaime as well. Eddard Stark took up right where Arryn had left off; his meddling had forced her
to rid herself of Robert sooner than she would have liked, before she could deal with his
pestilential brothers. Tyrion sold Myrcella to the Dornishmen, made one of her sons his hostage,
and murdered the other. And when Lord Tywin returned to Kings Landing...
The next Hand will know his place, she promised herself. It would have to be Ser Kevan. Her
uncle was tireless, prudent, unfailingly obedient. She could rely on him, as her father had. The
hand does not argue with the head. She had a realm to rule, but she would need new men to help
her rule it. Pycelle was a doddering lickspittle, Jaime had lost his courage with his sword hand,
and Mace Tyrell and his cronies Redwyne and Rowan could not be trusted. For all she knew they
might have had a part in this. Lord Tyrell had to know that he would never rule the Seven
Kingdoms so long as Tywin Lannister lived.
I will need to move carefully with that one. The city was full of his men, and hed even
managed to plant one of his sons in the Kingsguard, and meant to plant his daughter in
Tommens bed. It still made her furious to think that Father had agreed to betroth Tommen to
Margaery Tyrell. The girl is twice his age and twice widowed. Mace Tyrell claimed his daughter
was still virgin, but Cersei had her doubts. Joffrey had been murdered before he could bed the
girl, but she had been wed to Renly first... A man may prefer the taste of hippocras, yet if you set
a tankard of ale before him, he will quaff it quick enough. She must command Lord Varys to find
out what he could.
That stopped her where she stood. She had forgotten about Varys. He should be here. He is
always here. Whenever anything of import happened in the Red Keep, the eunuch appeared as if
from nowhere. Jaime is here, and Uncle Kevan, and Pycelle has come and gone, but not Varys. A
cold finger touched her spine. He was part of this. He must have feared that Father meant to have
his head, so he struck first. Lord Tywin had never had any love for the simpering master of
whisperers. And if any man knew the Red Keeps secrets, it was surely the master of whisperers.
He must have made common cause with Lord Stannis. They served together on Roberts council,
after all...
Cersei strode to the door of the bedchamber, to Ser Meryn Trant. Trant, bring me Lord Varys.
Squealing and squirming if need be, but unharmed.
As Your Grace commands.
But no sooner had one Kingsguard departed than another one returned. Ser Boros Blount was
red-faced and puffing from his headlong rush up the steps. Gone, he panted, when he saw the
queen. He sank to one knee. The Imp... his cells open, Your Grace... no sign of him
anywhere...

The dream was true. I gave orders, she said. He was to be kept under guard, night and
day...
Blounts chest was heaving. One of the gaolers has gone missing too. Rugen, his name was.
Two other men we found asleep.
It was all she could do not to scream. I hope you did not wake them, Ser Boros. Let them
sleep.
Sleep? He looked up, jowly and confused. Aye, Your Grace. How long shall
Forever. See that they sleep forever, ser. I will not suffer guards to sleep on watch. He is in
the walls. He killed Father as he killed Mother, as he killed Joff. The dwarf would come for her
as well, the queen knew, just as the old woman had promised her in the dimness of that tent. I
laughed in her face, but she had powers. I saw my future in a drop of blood. My doom. Her legs
were weak as water. Ser Boros tried to take her by the arm, but the queen recoiled from his
touch. For all she knew he might be one of Tyrions creatures. Get away from me, she said.
Get away! She staggered to a settle.
Your Grace? said Blount. Shall I fetch a cup of water?
It is blood I need, not water. Tyrions blood, the blood of the valonqar. The torches spun around
her. Cersei closed her eyes, and saw the dwarf grinning at her. No, she thought, no, I was almost
rid of you. But his fingers had closed around her neck, and she could feel them beginning to
tighten.

BRIENNE
I am looking for a maid of three-and-ten, she told the grey-haired goodwife beside the
village well. A highborn maid and very beautiful, with blue eyes and auburn hair. She may have
been traveling with a portly knight of forty years, or perhaps with a fool. Have you seen her?
Not as I recall, ser, the goodwife said, knuckling her forehead. But Ill keep my eye out, that
I will.
The blacksmith had not seen her either, nor the septon in the village sept, the swineherd with
his pigs, the girl pulling up onions from her garden, nor any of the other simple folk that the
Maid of Tarth found amongst the daub-and-wattle huts of Rosby. Still, she persisted. This is the
shortest road to Duskendale, Brienne told herself. If Sansa came this way, someone must have
seen her. At the castle gates she posed her question to two spearmen whose badges showed three
red chevronels on ermine, the arms of House Rosby. If shes on the roads these days she wont
be no maid for long, said the older man. The younger wanted to know if the girl had that auburn
hair between her legs as well.
I will find no help here. As Brienne mounted up again, she glimpsed a skinny boy atop a
piebald horse at the far end of the village. I have not talked with that one, she thought, but he
vanished behind the sept before she could seek him out. She did not trouble to chase after him.
Most like he knew no more than the others had. Rosby was scarce more than a wide place in the
road; Sansa would have had no reason to linger here. Returning to the road, Brienne headed
north and east past apple orchards and fields of barley, and soon left the village and its castle
well behind. It was at Duskendale that she would find her quarry, she told herself. If she came
this way at all.
I will find the girl and keep her safe, Brienne had promised Ser Jaime, back at Kings
Landing. For her lady mothers sake. And for yours. Noble words, but words were easy. Deeds
were hard. She had lingered too long and learned too little in the city. I should have set out
earlier... but to where? Sansa Stark had vanished on the night King Joffrey died, and if anyone
had seen her since, or had any inkling where she might have gone, they were not talking. Not to
me, at least.
Brienne believed the girl had left the city. If she were still in Kings Landing, the gold cloaks
would have turned her up. She had to have gone elsewhere... but elsewhere is a big place. If I
were a maiden newly flowered, alone and afraid, in desperate danger, what would I do? she had
asked herself. Where would I go? For her, the answer came easy. She would make her way back
to Tarth, to her father. Sansas father had been beheaded whilst she watched, however. Her lady
mother was dead too, murdered at the Twins, and Winterfell, the great Stark stronghold, had
been sacked and burned, its people put to the sword. She has no home to run to, no father, no
mother, no brothers. She might be in the next town, or on a ship to Asshai; one seemed as likely
as the other.
Even if Sansa Stark had wanted to go home, how would she get there? The kingsroad was not
safe; even a child would know that. The ironborn held Moat Cailin athwart the Neck, and at the

Twins sat the Freys, who had murdered Sansas brother and lady mother. The girl could go by
sea if she had the coin, but the harbor at Kings Landing was still in ruins, the river a jumble of
broken quays and burned and sunken galleys. Brienne had asked along the docks, but no one
could remember a ship leaving on the night King Joffrey died. A few trading ships were
anchoring in the bay and off-loading by boat, one man told her, but more were continuing up the
coast to Duskendale, where the port was busier than ever.
Briennes mare was sweet to look upon and kept a pretty pace. There were more travelers than
she would have thought. Begging brothers trundled by with their bowls dangling on thongs about
their necks. A young septon galloped past upon a palfrey as fine as any lords, and later she met
a band of silent sisters who shook their heads when Brienne put her question to them. A train of
oxcarts lumbered south with grain and sacks of wool, and later she passed a swineherd driving
pigs, and an old woman in a horse litter with an escort of mounted guards. She asked all of them
if they had seen a highborn girl of three-and-ten years with blue eyes and auburn hair. None had.
She asked about the road ahead as well. Twixt here and Duskendale is safe enough, one man
told her, but past Duskendale theres outlaws, and broken men in the woods.
Only the soldier pines and sentinels still showed green; the broadleaf trees had donned mantles
of russet and gold, or else uncloaked themselves to scratch against the sky with branches brown
and bare. Every gust of wind drove swirling clouds of dead leaves across the rutted road. They
made a rustling sound as they scuttled past the hooves of the big bay mare that Jaime Lannister
had bestowed on her. As easy to find one leaf in the wind as one girl lost in Westeros. She found
herself wondering whether Jaime had given her this task as some cruel jape. Perhaps Sansa Stark
was dead, beheaded for her part in King Joffreys death, buried in some unmarked grave. How
better to conceal her murder than by sending some big stupid wench from Tarth to find her?
Jaime would not do that. He was sincere. He gave me the sword, and called it Oathkeeper.
Anyway, it made no matter. She had promised Lady Catelyn that she would bring back her
daughters, and no promise was as solemn as one sworn to the dead. The younger girl was long
dead, Jaime claimed; the Arya the Lannisters sent north to marry Roose Boltons bastard was a
fraud. That left only Sansa. Brienne had to find her.
Near dusk she saw a campfire burning by a brook. Two men sat beside it grilling trout, their
arms and armor stacked beneath a tree. One was old and one was somewhat younger, though far
from young. The younger rose to greet her. He had a big belly straining at the laces of his spotted
doeskin jerkin. A shaggy untrimmed beard covered his cheeks and chin, the color of old gold.
We have trout enough for three, ser, he called out.
It was not the first time Brienne had been mistaken for a man. She pulled off her greathelm,
letting her hair spill free. It was yellow, the color of dirty straw, and near as brittle. Long and
thin, it blew about her shoulders. I thank you, ser.
The hedge knight squinted at her so earnestly that she realized he must be nearsighted. A lady,
is it? Armed and armored? Illy, gods be good, the size of her.
I took her for a knight as well, the older knight said, turning the trout.

Had Brienne been a man, she would have been called big; for a woman, she was huge. Freakish
was the word she had heard all her life. She was broad in the shoulder and broader in the hips.
Her legs were long, her arms thick. Her chest was more muscle than bosom. Her hands were big,
her feet enormous. And she was ugly besides, with a freckled, horsey face and teeth that seemed
almost too big for her mouth. She did not need to be reminded of any of that. Sers, she said,
have you seen a maid of three-and-ten upon the road? She has blue eyes and auburn hair, and
may have been in company with a portly red-faced man of forty years.
The nearsighted hedge knight scratched his head. I recall no such maid. What sort of hair is
auburn?
Browny red, said the older man. No, we saw her not.
We saw her not, mlady, the younger told her. Come, dismount, the fish is almost done. Are
you hungry?
She was, as it happened, but she was wary as well. Hedge knights had an unsavory reputation.
A hedge knight and a robber knight are two sides of the same sword, it was said. These two do
not look too dangerous. Might I know your names, sers?
I have the honor to be Ser Creighton Longbough, of whom the singers sing, said the big-
bellied one. You will have heard of my deeds on the Blackwater, mayhaps. My companion is
Ser Illifer the Penniless.
If there was a song about Creighton Longbough, it was not one Brienne had heard. Their names
meant no more to her than did their arms. Ser Creightons green shield showed only a brown
chief, and a deep gouge made by some battle-axe. Ser Illifer bore gold and ermine gyronny,
though everything about him suggested that painted gold and painted ermine were the only sorts
hed ever known. He was sixty if he was a day, his face pinched and narrow beneath the hood of
a patched roughspun mantle. Mail-clad he went, but flecks of rust spotted the iron like freckles.
Brienne stood a head taller than either of them, and was better mounted and better armed in the
bargain. If I fear the likes of these, I had as well swap my longsword for a pair of knitting
needles.
I thank you, good sers, she said. I will gladly share your trout. Swinging down, Brienne
unsaddled her mare and watered her before hobbling her to graze. She stacked her arms and
shield and saddlebags beneath an elm. By then the trout was crisply done. Ser Creighton brought
her a fish, and she sat cross-legged on the ground to eat it.
We are bound for Duskendale, mlady, Longbough told her, as he pulled apart his own trout
with his fingers. You would do well to ride with us. The roads are perilous.
Brienne could have told him more about the perils of the roads than he might have cared to
know. I thank you, ser, but I have no need of your protection.
I insist. A true knight must defend the gentler sex.
She touched her sword hilt. This will defend me, ser.
A sword is only as good as the man who wields it.
I wield it well enough.

As you will. It would not be courteous to argue with a lady. We will see you safe to
Duskendale. Three together may ride more safely than one alone.
We were three when we set out from Riverrun, yet Jaime lost his hand and Cleos Frey his life.
Your mounts could not keep up with mine. Ser Creightons brown gelding was an old
swaybacked creature with rheumy eyes, and Ser Illifers horse looked weedy and half-starved.
My steed served me well enough on the Blackwater, Ser Creighton insisted. Why, I did great
carnage there and won a dozen ransoms. Was mlady familiar with Ser Herbert Bolling? You
shall never meet him now. I slew him where he stood. When swords clash, you shall neer find
Ser Creighton Longbough to the rear.
His companion gave a dry chuckle. Creigh, leave off. The likes o her has no need for the likes
o us.
The likes of me? Brienne was uncertain what he meant.
Ser Illifer crooked a bony finger at her shield. Though its paint was cracked and peeling, the
device it bore showed plain: a black bat on a field divided bendwise, silver and gold. You bear a
liars shield, to which you have no right. My grandfathers grandfather helped kill the last o
Lothston. None since has dared to show that bat, black as the deeds of them that bore it.
The shield was the one Ser Jaime had taken from the armory at Harrenhal. Brienne had found it
in the stables with her mare, along with much else; saddle and bridle, chainmail hauberk and
visored greathelm, purses of gold and silver and a parchment more valuable than either. I lost
mine own shield, she explained.
A true knight is the only shield a maiden needs, declared Ser Creighton stoutly.
Ser Illifer paid him no mind. A barefoot man looks for a boot, a chilly man a cloak. But who
would cloak themselves in shame? Lord Lucas bore that bat, the Pander, and Manfryd o the
Black Hood, his son. Why wear such arms, I ask myself, unless your own sin is fouler still... and
fresher. He unsheathed his dagger, an ugly piece of cheap iron. A woman freakish big and
freakish strong who hides her own true colors. Creigh, behold the Maid o Tarth, who opened
Renlys royal throat for him.
That is a lie. Renly Baratheon had been more than a king to her. She had loved him since first
he came to Tarth on his leisurely lords progress, to mark his coming of age. Her father
welcomed him with a feast and commanded her to attend; elsewise she would have hidden in her
room like some wounded beast. She had been no older than Sansa, more afraid of sniggers than
of swords. They will know about the rose, she told Lord Selwyn, they will laugh at me. But the
Evenstar would not relent.
And Renly Baratheon had shown her every courtesy, as if she were a proper maid, and pretty.
He even danced with her, and in his arms shed felt graceful, and her feet had floated across the
floor. Later others begged a dance of her, because of his example. From that day forth, she
wanted only to be close to Lord Renly, to serve him and protect him. But in the end she failed
him. Renly died in my arms, but I did not kill him, she thought, but these hedge knights would
never understand. I would have given my life for King Renly, and died happy, she said. I did
no harm to him. I swear it by my sword.

A knight swears by his sword, Ser Creighton said.
Swear it by the Seven, urged Ser Illifer the Penniless.
By the Seven, then. I did no harm to King Renly. I swear it by the Mother. May I never know
her mercy if I lie. I swear it by the Father, and ask that he might judge me justly. I swear it by the
Maiden and Crone, by the Smith and the Warrior. And I swear it by the Stranger, may he take me
now if I am false.
She swears well, for a maid, Ser Creighton allowed.
Aye. Ser Illifer the Penniless gave a shrug. Well, if shes lied, the gods will sort her out. He
slipped his dagger back away. The first watch is yours.
As the hedge knights slept, Brienne paced restlessly around the little camp, listening to the
crackle of the fire. I should ride on whilst I can. She did not know these men, yet she could not
bring herself to leave them undefended. Even in the black of night, there were riders on the road,
and noises in the woods that might or might not have been owls and prowling foxes. So Brienne
paced, and kept her blade loose in its scabbard.
Her watch was easy, all in all. It was after that was hard, when Ser Illifer woke and said he
would relieve her. Brienne spread a blanket on the ground, and curled up to close her eyes. I will
not sleep, she told herself, bone weary though she was. She had never slept easily in the presence
of men. Even in Lord Renlys camps, the risk of rape was always there. It was a lesson she had
learned beneath the walls of Highgarden, and again when she and Jaime had fallen into the hands
of the Brave Companions.
The cold in the earth seeped through Briennes blankets to soak into her bones. Before long
every muscle felt clenched and cramped, from her jaw down to her toes. She wondered whether
Sansa Stark was cold as well, wherever she might be. Lady Catelyn had said that Sansa was a
gentle soul who loved lemon cakes, silken gowns, and songs of chivalry, yet the girl had seen her
fathers head lopped off and been forced to marry one of his killers afterward. If half the tales
were true, the dwarf was the cruelest Lannister of all. If she did poison King Joffrey, the Imp
surely forced her hand. She was alone and friendless at that court. In Kings Landing, Brienne
had hunted down a certain Brella, who had been one of Sansas maids. The woman told her that
there was little warmth between Sansa and the dwarf. Perhaps she had been fleeing him as well
as Joffreys murder.
Whatever dreams Brienne dreamed were gone when dawn awoke her. Her legs were stiff as
wood from the cold ground, but no one had molested her, and her goods remained untouched.
The hedge knights were up and about. Ser Illifer was cutting up a squirrel for breakfast, while
Ser Creighton stood facing a tree, having himself a good long piss. Hedge knights, she thought,
old and vain and plump and nearsighted, yet decent men for all that. It cheered her to know that
there were still decent men in the world.
They broke their fast on roast squirrel, acorn paste, and pickles, whilst Ser Creighton regaled
her with his exploits on the Blackwater, where he had slain a dozen fearsome knights that she
had never heard of. Oh, it was a rare fight, mlady, he said, a rare and bloody fray. He
allowed that Ser Illifer had fought nobly in the battle as well. Illifer himself said little.

When time came to resume their journey, the knights fell in on either side of her, like guards
protecting some great lady... though this lady dwarfed both of her protectors and was better
armed and armored in the nonce. Did anyone pass by during your watches? Brienne asked
them.
Such as a maid of three-and-ten, with auburn hair? said Ser Illifer the Penniless. No, my
lady. No one.
I had a few, Ser Creighton put in. Some farm boy on a piebald horse went by, and an hour
later half a dozen men afoot with staves and scythes. They caught sight of our fire, and stopped
for a long look at our horses, but I showed them a glimpse of my steel and told them to be along
their way. Rough fellows, by the look o them, and desperate too, but neer so desperate as to
trifle with Ser Creighton Longbough.
No, Brienne thought, not so desperate as that. She turned away to hide her smile. Thankfully,
Ser Creighton was too intent on the tale of his epic battle with the Knight of the Red Chicken to
make note of the maidens mirth. It felt good to have companions on the road, even such
companions as these two.
It was midday when Brienne heard chanting drifting through the bare brown trees. What is that
sound? Ser Creighton asked.
Voices, raised in prayer. Brienne knew the chant. They are beseeching the Warrior for
protection, asking the Crone to light their way.
Ser Illifer the Penniless bared his battered blade and reined in his horse to wait their coming.
They are close now.
The chanting filled the woods like pious thunder. And suddenly the source of the sound
appeared in the road ahead. A group of begging brothers led the way, scruffy bearded men in
roughspun robes, some barefoot and some in sandals. Behind them marched threescore ragged
men, women, and children, a spotted sow, and several sheep. Several of the men had axes, and
more had crude wooden clubs and cudgels. In their midst there rolled a two-wheeled wayn of
grey and splintered wood, piled high with skulls and broken bits of bone. When they saw the
hedge knights, the begging brothers halted, and the chanting died away. Good knights, one
said, the Mother loves you.
And you, brother, said Ser Illifer. Who are you?
Poor fellows, said a big man with an axe. Despite the chill of the autumnal wood, he was
shirtless, and on his breast was carved a seven-pointed star. Andal warriors had carved such stars
in their flesh when first they crossed the narrow sea to overwhelm the kingdoms of the First
Men.
We are marching to the city, said a tall woman in the traces of the wayn, to bring these holy
bones to Blessed Baelor, and seek succor and protection from the king.
Join us, friends, urged a spare small man in a threadbare septons robe, who wore a crystal on
a thong about his neck. Westeros has need of every sword.
We were bound for Duskendale, declared Ser Creighton, but mayhaps we could see you
safely to Kings Landing.

If you have the coin to pay us for this escort, added Ser Illifer, who seemed practical as well
as penniless.
Sparrows need no gold, the septon said.
Ser Creighton was lost. Sparrows?
The sparrow is the humblest and most common of birds, as we are the humblest and most
common of men. The septon had a lean sharp face and a short beard, grizzled grey and brown.
His thin hair was pulled back and knotted behind his head, and his feet were bare and black,
gnarled and hard as tree roots. These are the bones of holy men, murdered for their faith. They
served the Seven even unto death. Some starved, some were tortured. Septs have been despoiled,
maidens and mothers raped by godless men and demon worshipers. Even silent sisters have been
molested. Our Mother Above cries out in her anguish. It is time for all anointed knights to
forsake their worldly masters and defend our Holy Faith. Come with us to the city, if you love
the Seven.
I love them well enough, said Illifer, yet I must eat.
So must all the Mothers children.
We are bound for Duskendale, Ser Illifer said flatly.
One of the begging brothers spat, and a woman gave a moan. You are false knights, said the
big man with the star carved on his chest. Several others brandished their cudgels.
The barefoot septon calmed them with a word. Judge not, for judgment is the Fathers. Let
them pass in peace. They are poor fellows too, lost upon the earth.
Brienne edged her mare forward. My sister is lost as well. A girl of three-and-ten with auburn
hair, fair to look upon.
All the Mothers children are fair to look upon. May the Maiden watch over this poor girl...
and you as well, I think. The septon lifted one of the traces of the wayn upon his shoulder, and
began to pull. The begging brothers took up the chant once more. Brienne and the hedge knights
sat upon their horses as the procession moved slowly past, following the rutted road toward
Rosby. The sound of their chanting slowly dwindled away and died.
Ser Creighton lifted one cheek off the saddle to scratch his arse. What sort of man would slay
a holy septon?
Brienne knew what sort. Near Maidenpool, she recalled, the Brave Companions had strung a
septon up by his heels from the limb of a tree and used his corpse for archery practice. She
wondered if his bones were piled in that wayn with all the rest.
A man would need to be a fool to rape a silent sister, Ser Creighton was saying. Even to lay
hands upon one... its said they are the Strangers wives, and their female parts are cold and wet
as ice. He glanced at Brienne. Uh... beg pardon.
Brienne spurred her mare toward Duskendale. After a moment, Ser Illifer followed, and Ser
Creighton came bringing up the rear.
Three hours later they came up upon another party struggling toward Duskendale; a merchant
and his serving men, accompanied by yet another hedge knight. The merchant rode a dappled
grey mare, whilst his servants took turns pulling his wagon. Four labored in the traces as the

other two walked beside the wheels, but when they heard the sound of horses they formed up
around the wagon with quarterstaffs of ash at the ready. The merchant produced a crossbow, the
knight a blade. You will forgive me if I am suspicious, called the merchant, but the times are
troubled, and I have only good Ser Shadrich to defend me. Who are you?
Why, Ser Creighton said, affronted, I am the famous Ser Creighton Longbough, fresh from
battle on the Blackwater, and this is my companion, Ser Illifer the Penniless.
We mean you no harm, said Brienne.
The merchant considered her doubtfully. My lady, you should be safe at home. Why do you
wear such unnatural garb?
I am searching for my sister. She dared not mention Sansas name, with her accused of
regicide. She is a highborn maid and beautiful, with blue eyes and auburn hair. Perhaps you saw
her with a portly knight of forty years, or a drunken fool.
The roads are full of drunken fools and despoiled maidens. As to portly knights, it is hard for
any honest man to keep his belly round when so many lack for food... though your Ser Creighton
has not hungered, it would seem.
I have big bones, Ser Creighton insisted. Shall we ride together for a time? I do not doubt
Ser Shadrichs valor, but he seems small, and three blades are better than one.
Four blades, thought Brienne, but she held her tongue.
The merchant looked to his escort. What say you, ser?
Oh, these three are nought to fear. Ser Shadrich was a wiry, fox-faced man with a sharp nose
and a shock of orange hair, mounted on a rangy chestnut courser. Though he could not have been
more than five foot two, he had a cocksure manner. The one is old, tother fat, and the big one is
a woman. Let them come.
As you say. The merchant lowered his crossbow.
As they resumed their journey, the hired knight dropped back and looked her up and down as if
she were a side of good salt pork. Youre a strapping healthy wench, Id say.
Ser Jaimes mockery had cut her deep; the little mans words hardly touched her. A giant,
compared to some.
He laughed. I am big enough where it counts, wench.
The merchant called you Shadrich.
Ser Shadrich of the Shady Glen. Some call me the Mad Mouse. He turned his shield to show
her his sigil, a large white mouse with fierce red eyes, on bendy brown and blue. The brown is
for the lands Ive roamed, the blue for the rivers that Ive crossed. The mouse is me.
And are you mad?
Oh, quite. Your common mouse will run from blood and battle. The mad mouse seeks them
out.
It would seem he seldom finds them.
I find enough. Tis true, I am no tourney knight. I save my valor for the battlefield, woman.
Woman was marginally better than wench, she supposed. You and good Ser Creighton have
much in common, then.

Ser Shadrich laughed. Oh, I doubt that, but it may be that you and I share a quest. A little lost
sister, is it? With blue eyes and auburn hair? He laughed again. You are not the only hunter in
the woods. I seek for Sansa Stark as well.
Brienne kept her face a mask, to hide her dismay. Who is this Sansa Stark, and why do you
seek her?
For love, why else?
She furrowed her brow. Love?
Aye, love of gold. Unlike your good Ser Creighton, I did fight upon the Blackwater, but on the
losing side. My ransom ruined me. You know who Varys is, I trust? The eunuch has offered a
plump bag of gold for this girl youve never heard of. I am not a greedy man. If some oversized
wench would help me find this naughty child, I would split the Spiders coin with her.
I thought you were in this merchants hire.
Only so far as Duskendale. Hibald is as niggardly as he is fearful. And he is very fearful. What
say you, wench?
I know no Sansa Stark, she insisted. I am searching for my sister, a highborn girl...
... with blue eyes and auburn hair, aye. Pray, who is this knight who travels with your sister?
Or did you name him fool? Ser Shadrich did not wait for her answer, which was good, since she
had none. A certain fool vanished from Kings Landing the night King Joffrey died, a stout
fellow with a nose full of broken veins, one Ser Dontos the Red, formerly of Duskendale. I pray
your sister and her drunken fool are not mistaken for the Stark girl and Ser Dontos. That could be
most unfortunate. He put his heels into his courser and trotted on ahead.
Even Jaime Lannister had seldom made Brienne feel such a fool. You are not the only hunter in
the woods. The woman Brella had told her how Joffrey had stripped Ser Dontos of his spurs,
how Lady Sansa begged Joffrey for his life. He helped her flee, Brienne had decided, when she
heard the tale. Find Ser Dontos, and I will find Sansa. She should have known there would be
others who would see it too. Some may even be less savory than Ser Shadrich. She could only
hope that Ser Dontos had hidden Sansa well. But if so, how will I ever find her?
She hunched her shoulders down and rode on, frowning.
Night was gathering by the time their party came upon the inn, a tall, timbered building that
stood beside a river junction, astride an old stone bridge. That was the inns name, Ser Creighton
told them: the Old Stone Bridge. The innkeep was a friend of his. Not a bad cook, and the
rooms have no more fleas than most, he vouched. Whos for a warm bed tonight?
Not us, unless your friend is giving them away, said Ser Illifer the Penniless. We have no
coin for rooms.
I can pay for the three of us. Brienne did not lack for coin; Jaime had seen to that. In her
saddlebags shed found a purse fat with silver stags and copper stars, a smaller one stuffed with
golden dragons, and a parchment commanding all loyal subjects of the king to assist the bearer,
Brienne of House Tarth, who was about His Graces business. It was signed in a childish hand by
Tommen, the First of His Name, King of the Andals, the Rhoynar, and the First Men, and Lord
of the Seven Kingdoms.

Hibald was for stopping too, and bid his men to leave the wagon near the stables. Warm yellow
light shone through the diamond-shaped panes of the inns windows, and Brienne heard a
stallion trumpet at the scent of her mare. She was loosening the saddle when a boy came out the
stable door, and said, Let me do that, ser.
I am no ser, she told him, but you may take the horse. See that she is fed and brushed and
watered.
The boy reddened. Beg pardons, mlady. I thought...
It is a common mistake. Brienne gave him the reins and followed the others into the inn, with
her saddlebags across a shoulder and her bedroll tucked up beneath one arm.
Sawdust covered the plank floor of the common room, and the air smelled of hops and smoke
and meat. A roast was spitting and crackling over the fire, unattended for the moment. Six locals
sat about a table, talking, but they broke off when the strangers entered. Brienne could feel their
eyes. Despite chainmail, cloak, and jerkin, she felt naked. When one man said, Have a look at
that, she knew he was not speaking of Ser Shadrich.
The innkeep appeared, clutching three tankards in each hand and slopping ale at every step.
Do you have rooms, good man? the merchant asked him.
I might, the innkeep said, for them as has coin.
Ser Creighton Longbough looked offended. Naggle, is that how you would greet an old friend?
Tis me, Longbough.
Tis you indeed. You owe me seven stags. Show me some silver and Ill show you a bed. The
innkeep set the tankards down one by one, slopping more ale on the table in the process.
I will pay for one room for myself, and a second for my two companions. Brienne indicated
Ser Creighton and Ser Illifer.
I shall take a room as well, said the merchant, for myself and good Ser Shadrich. My serving
men will bed down in your stables, if it please you.
The innkeep looked them over. It dont please me, but might be Ill allow it. Will you be
wanting supper? Thats good goat on the spit, that is.
I shall judge its goodness for myself, Hibald announced. My men will content themselves
with bread and drippings.
And so they supped. Brienne tried the goat herself, after following the innkeep up the steps,
pressing some coins into his hand, and stashing her goods in the second room he showed her.
She ordered goat for Ser Creighton and Ser Illifer as well, since they had shared their trout with
her. The hedge knights and the septon washed down the meat with ale, but Brienne drank a cup
of goats milk. She listened to the table talk, hoping against hope that she might hear something
that would help her find Sansa.
You come from Kings Landing, one of the locals said to Hibald. Is it true that the
Kingslayers been crippled?
True enough, Hibald said. Hes lost his sword hand.
Aye, Ser Creighton said, chewed off by a direwolf, I hear, one of them monsters come down
from the north. Nought thats good ever come from the north. Even their gods are queer.

It was not a wolf, Brienne heard herself say. Ser Jaime lost his hand to a Qohorik
sellsword.
It is no easy thing to fight with your off hand, observed the Mad Mouse.
Bah, said Ser Creighton Longbough. As it happens, I fight as well with either hand.
Oh, I have no doubt of that. Ser Shadrich lifted his tankard in salute.
Brienne remembered her fight with Jaime Lannister in the woods. It had been all that she could
do to keep his blade at bay. He was weak from his imprisonment, and chained at the wrists. No
knight in the Seven Kingdoms could have stood against him at his full strength, with no chains to
hamper him. Jaime had done many wicked things, but the man could fight! His maiming had
been monstrously cruel. It was one thing to slay a lion, another to hack his paw off and leave him
broken and bewildered.
Suddenly the common room was too loud to endure a moment longer. She muttered her good-
nights and took herself up to bed. The ceiling in her room was low; entering with a taper in her
hand, Brienne had to duck or crack her head. The only furnishings were a bed wide enough to
sleep six, and the stub of a tallow candle on the sill. She lit it with the taper, barred the door, and
hung her sword belt from a bedpost. Her scabbard was a plain thing, wood wrapped in cracked
brown leather, and her sword was plainer still. She had bought it in Kings Landing, to replace
the blade the Brave Companions had stolen. Renlys sword. It still hurt, knowing she had lost it.
But she had another longsword hidden in her bedroll. She sat on the bed and took it out. Gold
glimmered yellow in the candlelight and rubies smoldered red. When she slid Oathkeeper from
the ornate scabbard, Briennes breath caught in her throat. Black and red the ripples ran, deep
within the steel. Valyrian steel, spell-forged. It was a sword fit for a hero. When she was small,
her nurse had filled her ears with tales of valor, regaling her with the noble exploits of Ser
Galladon of Morne, Florian the Fool, Prince Aemon the Dragonknight, and other champions.
Each man bore a famous sword, and surely Oathkeeper belonged in their company, even if she
herself did not. Youll be defending Ned Starks daughter with Ned Starks own steel, Jaime
had promised.
Kneeling between the bed and wall, she held the blade and said a silent prayer to the Crone,
whose golden lamp showed men the way through life. Lead me, she prayed, light the way before
me, show me the path that leads to Sansa. She had failed Renly, had failed Lady Catelyn. She
must not fail Jaime. He trusted me with his sword. He trusted me with his honor.
Afterward she stretched out on the bed as best she could. For all its width it was not long
enough, so Brienne lay across it sideways. She could hear the clatter of tankards from below, and
voices drifting up the steps. The fleas that Longbough had spoken of put in their appearance.
Scratching helped keep her awake.
She heard Hibald mount the stairs, and sometime later the knights as well. ... I never knew his
name, Ser Creighton was saying as he went by, but upon his shield he bore a blood-red
chicken, and his blade was dripping gore... His voice faded, and somewhere up above, a door
opened and closed.

Her candle burned out. Darkness settled over the Old Stone Bridge, and the inn grew so still
that she could hear the murmur of the river. Only then did Brienne rise to gather up her things.
She eased the door open, listened, made her way barefoot down the steps. Outside she donned
her boots and hurried to the stables to saddle her bay mare, asking a silent pardon of Ser
Creighton and Ser Illifer as she mounted. One of Hibalds serving men woke when she rode past
him, but made no move to stop her. Her mares hooves rang upon the old stone bridge. Then the
trees closed in around her, black as pitch and full of ghosts and memories. I am coming for you,
Lady Sansa, she thought as she rode into the darkness. Be not afraid. I shall not rest until Ive
found you.

SAMWELL
Sam was reading about the Others when he saw the mouse.
His eyes were red and raw. I ought not rub them so much, he always told himself as he rubbed
them. The dust made them itch and water, and the dust was everywhere down here. Little puffs
of it filled the air every time a page was turned, and it rose in grey clouds whenever he shifted a
stack of books to see what might be hiding on the bottom.
Sam did not know how long it had been since last hed slept, but scarce an inch remained of the
fat tallow candle hed lit when starting on the ragged bundle of loose pages that hed found tied
up in twine. He was beastly tired, but it was hard to stop. One more book, he had told himself,
then Ill stop. One more folio, just one more. One more page, then Ill go up and rest and get a
bite to eat. But there was always another page after that one, and another after that, and another
book waiting underneath the pile. Ill just take a quick peek to see what this one is about, hed
think, and before he knew he would be halfway through it. He had not eaten since that bowl of
bean-and-bacon soup with Pyp and Grenn. Well, except for the bread and cheese, but that was
only a nibble, he thought. That was when he took a quick glance at the empty platter, and spied
the mouse feasting on the bread crumbs.
The mouse was half as long as his pinky finger, with black eyes and soft grey fur. Sam knew he
ought to kill it. Mice might prefer bread and cheese, but they ate paper too. He had found plenty
of mouse droppings amongst the shelves and stacks, and some of the leather covers on the books
showed signs of being gnawed.
It is such a little thing, though. And hungry. How could he begrudge it a few crumbs? Its
eating books, though...
After hours in the chair Sams back was stiff as a board, and his legs were half-asleep. He knew
he was not quick enough to catch the mouse, but it might be he could squash it. By his elbow
rested a massive leather-bound copy of Annals of the Black Centaur, Septon Jorquens
exhaustively detailed account of the nine years that Orbert Caswell had served as Lord
Commander of the Nights Watch. There was a page for each day of his term, every one of
which seemed to begin, Lord Orbert rose at dawn and moved his bowels, except for the last,
which said, Lord Orbert was found to have died during the night.
No mouse is a match for Septon Jorquen. Very slowly, Sam took hold of the book with his left
hand. It was thick and heavy, and when he tried to lift it one-handed, it slipped from his plump
fingers and thumped back down. The mouse was gone in half a heartbeat, skittery-quick. Sam
was relieved. Squishing the poor little thing would have given him nightmares. You shouldnt
eat the books, though, he said aloud. Maybe he should bring more cheese the next time he came
down here.
He was surprised at how low the candle had burned. Had the bean-and-bacon soup been today
or yesterday? Yesterday. It must have been yesterday. The realization made him yawn. Jon
would be wondering what had become of him, though Maester Aemon would no doubt
understand. Before he had lost his sight, the maester had loved books as much as Samwell Tarly

did. He understood the way that you could sometimes fall right into them, as if each page was a
hole into another world.
Pushing himself to his feet, Sam grimaced at the pins and needles in his calves. The chair was
very hard and cut into the back of his thighs when he bent over a book. I need to remember to
bring a cushion. It would be even better if he could sleep down here, in the cell hed found half-
hidden behind four chests full of loose pages that had gotten separated from the books they
belonged to, but he did not want to leave Maester Aemon alone for so long. He had not been
strong of late and required help, especially with the ravens. Aemon had Clydas, to be sure, but
Sam was younger, and better with the birds.
With a stack of books and scrolls under his left arm and the candle in his right hand, Sam made
his way through the tunnels the brothers called the wormways. A pale shaft of light illuminated
the steep stone steps that led up to the surface, so he knew that day had come up top. He left the
candle burning in a wall niche and began the climb. By the fifth step he was puffing. At the tenth
he stopped to shift the books to his right arm.
He emerged beneath a sky the color of white lead. A snow sky, Sam thought, squinting up. The
prospect made him uneasy. He remembered that night on the Fist of the First Men when the
wights and the snows had come together. Dont be so craven, he thought. You have your Sworn
Brothers all around you, not to mention Stannis Baratheon and all his knights. Castle Blacks
keeps and towers rose about him, dwarfed by the icy immensity of the Wall. A small army was
crawling over the ice a quarter of the way up, where a new switchback stair was creeping upward
to meet the remnants of the old one. The sounds of their saws and hammers echoed off the ice.
Jon had the builders working night and day on the task. Sam had heard some of them
complaining about it over supper, insisting that Lord Mormont never worked them half so hard.
Without the great stair there was no way to reach the top of the Wall except by the chain winch,
however. And as much as Samwell Tarly hated steps, he hated the winch cage more. He always
closed his eyes when he was riding it, convinced that the chain was about to break. Every time
the iron cage scraped against the ice his heart stopped beating for an instant.
There were dragons here two hundred years ago, Sam found himself thinking, as he watched
the cage making a slow descent. They would just have flown to the top of the Wall. Queen
Alysanne had visited Castle Black on her dragon, and Jaehaerys, her king, had come after her on
his own. Could Silverwing have left an egg behind? Or had Stannis found one egg on
Dragonstone? Even if he has an egg, how can he hope to quicken it? Baelor the Blessed had
prayed over his eggs, and other Targaryens had sought to hatch theirs with sorcery. All they got
for it was farce and tragedy.
Samwell, said a glum voice, I was coming to fetch you. I was told to bring you to the Lord
Commander.
A snowflake landed on Sams nose. Jon wants to see me?
As to that, I could not say, said Dolorous Edd Tollett. I never wanted to see half the things
Ive seen, and Ive never seen half the things I wanted to. I dont think wanting comes into it.

Youd best go all the same. Lord Snow wishes to speak with you as soon as he is done with
Crasters wife.
Gilly.
Thats the one. If my wet nurse had looked like her, Id still be on the teat. Mine had
whiskers.
Most goats do, called Pyp, as he and Grenn emerged from around the corner, with longbows
in hand and quivers of arrows on their backs. Where have you been, Slayer? We missed you last
night at supper. A whole roast ox went uneaten.
Dont call me Slayer. Sam ignored the gibe about the ox. That was just Pyp. I was reading.
There was a mouse...
Dont mention mice to Grenn. Hes terrified of mice.
I am not, Grenn declared with indignation.
Youd be too scared to eat one.
Id eat more mice than you would.
Dolorous Edd Tollett gave a sigh. When I was a lad, we only ate mice on special feast days. I
was the youngest, so I always got the tail. Theres no meat on the tail.
Where's your longbow, Sam? asked Grenn. Ser Alliser used to call him Aurochs, and every
day he seemed to grow into the name a little more. He had come to the Wall big but slow, thick
of neck, thick of waist, red of face, and clumsy. Though his neck still reddened when Pyp twisted
him around into some folly, hours of work with sword and shield had flattened his belly,
hardened his arms, broadened his chest. He was strong, and shaggy as an aurochs too. Ulmer
was expecting you at the butts.
Ulmer, Sam said, abashed. Almost the first thing Jon Snow had done as Lord Commander
was institute daily archery drill for the entire garrison, even stewards and cooks. The Watch had
been placing too much emphasis on the sword and too little on the bow, he had said, a relic of the
days when one brother in every ten had been a knight, instead of one in every hundred. Sam saw
the sense in the decree, but he hated longbow practice almost as much as he hated climbing
steps. When he wore his gloves he could never hit anything, but when he took them off he got
blisters on his fingers. Those bows were dangerous. Satin had torn off half his thumbnail on a
bowstring. I forgot.
You broke the heart of the wildling princess, Slayer, said Pyp. Of late, Val had taken to
watching them from the window of her chamber in the Kings Tower. She was looking for
you.
She was not! Dont say that! Sam had only spoken to Val twice, when Maester Aemon called
upon her to make sure the babes were healthy. The princess was so pretty that he oft found
himself stammering and blushing in her presence.
Why not? asked Pyp. She wants to have your children. Maybe we should call you Sam the
Seducer.

Sam reddened. King Stannis had plans for Val, he knew; she was the mortar with which he
meant to seal the peace between the northmen and the free folk. I dont have time for archery
today, I need to go see Jon.
Jon? Jon? Do we know anyone named Jon, Grenn?
He means the Lord Commander.
Ohhh. The Great Lord Snow. To be sure. Why do you want to see him? He cant even wiggle
his ears. Pyp wiggled his, to show he could. They were large ears, and red from cold. Hes
Lord Snow for true now, too bloody highborn for the likes of us.
Jon has duties, Sam said in his defense. The Wall is his, and all that goes with it.
A man has duties to his friends as well. If not for us, Janos Slynt might be our lord
commander. Lord Janos would have sent Snow ranging naked on a mule. Scamper on up to
Crasters Keep, he would have said, and fetch me back the Old Bears cloak and boots. We
saved him from that, but now he has too many duties to drink a cup of mulled wine by the fire?
Grenn agreed. His duties dont keep him from the yard. More days than not, hes out there
fighting someone.
That was true, Sam had to admit. Once, when Jon came to consult with Maester Aemon, Sam
had asked him why he spent so much time at swordplay. The Old Bear never trained much
when he was Lord Commander, he had pointed out. In answer, Jon had pressed Longclaw into
Sams hand. He let him feel the lightness, the balance, had him turn the blade so that ripples
gleamed in the smoke-dark metal. Valyrian steel, he said, spell-forged and razor-sharp, nigh
on indestructible. A swordsman should be as good as his sword, Sam. Longclaw is Valyrian
steel, but Im not. The Halfhand could have killed me as easy as you swat a bug.
Sam handed back the sword. When I try to swat a bug, it always flies away. All I do is slap my
arm. It stings.
That made Jon laugh. As you will. Qhorin could have killed me as easy as you eat a bowl of
porridge. Sam was fond of porridge, especially when it was sweetened with honey.
I dont have time for this. Sam left his friends and made his way toward the armory, clutching
his books to his chest. I am the shield that guards the realms of men, he remembered. He
wondered what those men would say if they realized their realms were being guarded by the
likes of Grenn, Pyp, and Dolorous Edd.
The Lord Commanders Tower had been gutted by fire, and Stannis Baratheon had claimed the
Kings Tower for his own residence, so Jon Snow had established himself in Donal Noyes
modest quarters behind the armory. Gilly was leaving as Sam arrived, wrapped up in the old
cloak hed given her when they were fleeing Crasters Keep. She almost rushed right past him,
but Sam caught her arm, spilling two books as he did. Gilly.
Sam. Her voice sounded raw. Gilly was dark-haired and slim, with the big brown eyes of a
doe. She was swallowed by the folds of Sams old cloak, her face half-hidden by its hood, but
shivering all the same. Her face looked wan and frightened.
Whats wrong? Sam asked her. How are the babes?
Gilly pulled loose from him. Theyre good, Sam. Good.

Between the two of them its a wonder you can sleep, Sam said pleasantly. Which one was it
that I heard crying last night? I thought hed never stop.
Dallas boy. He cries when he wants the teat. Mine... mine hardly ever cries. Sometimes he
gurgles, but... Her eyes filled with tears. I have to go. Its past time that I fed them. Ill be
leaking all over myself if I dont go. She rushed across the yard, leaving Sam perplexed behind
her.
He had to get down on his knees to gather up the books hed dropped. I should not have brought
so many, he told himself as he brushed the dirt off Colloquo Votars Jade Compendium, a thick
volume of tales and legends from the east that Maester Aemon had commanded him to find. The
book appeared undamaged. Maester Thomaxs Dragonkin, Being a History of House Targaryen
from Exile to Apotheosis, with a Consideration of the Life and Death of Dragons had not been so
fortunate. It had come open as it fell, and a few pages had gotten muddy, including one with a
rather nice picture of Balerion the Black Dread done in colored inks. Sam cursed himself for a
clumsy oaf as he smoothed the pages down and brushed them off. Gillys presence always
flustered him and gave rise to... well, risings. A Sworn Brother of the Nights Watch should not
be feeling the sorts of things that Gilly made him feel, especially when she would talk about her
breasts and...
Lord Snow is waiting. Two guards in black cloaks and iron halfhelms stood by the doors of
the armory, leaning on their spears. Hairy Hal was the one whod spoken. Mully helped Sam
back to his feet. He blurted out thanks and hurried past them, clutching desperately at the stack
of books as he made his way past the forge with its anvil and bellows. A shirt of ringmail rested
on his workbench, half-completed. Ghost was stretched out beneath the anvil, gnawing on the
bone of an ox to get at the marrow. The big white direwolf looked up when Sam went by, but
made no sound.
Jons solar was back beyond the racks of spears and shields. He was reading a parchment when
Sam entered. Lord Commander Mormonts raven was on his shoulder, peering down as if it were
reading too, but when the bird spied Sam it spread its wings and flapped toward him crying,
Corn, corn!
Shifting the books, Sam thrust his arm into the sack beside the door and came out with a
handful of kernels. The raven landed on his wrist and took one from his palm, pecking so hard
that Sam yelped and snatched his hand back. The raven took to the air again, and yellow and red
kernels went everywhere.
Close the door, Sam. Faint scars still marked Jons cheek, where an eagle had once tried to
rip his eye out. Did that wretch break the skin?
Sam eased the books down and peeled off his glove. He did. He felt faint. Im bleeding.
We all shed our blood for the Watch. Wear thicker gloves. Jon shoved a chair toward him
with a foot. Sit, and have a look at this. He handed him the parchment.
What is it? asked Sam. The raven began to hunt out corn kernels amongst the rushes.
A paper shield.

Sam sucked at the blood on his palm as he read. He knew Maester Aemons hand on sight. His
writing was small and precise, but the old man could not see where the ink had blotted, and
sometimes he left unsightly smears. A letter to King Tommen?
At Winterfell Tommen fought my brother Bran with wooden swords. He wore so much
padding he looked like a stuffed goose. Bran knocked him to the ground. Jon went to the
window. Yet Brans dead, and pudgy pink-faced Tommen is sitting on the Iron Throne, with a
crown nestled amongst his golden curls.
Brans not dead, Sam wanted to say. Hes gone beyond the Wall with Coldhands. The words
caught in his throat. I swore I would not tell. You havent signed the letter.
The Old Bear begged the Iron Throne for help a hundred times. They sent him Janos Slynt. No
letter will make the Lannisters love us better. Not once they hear that weve been helping
Stannis.
Only to defend the Wall, not in his rebellion. Sam read the letter quickly once again. Thats
what it says here.
The distinction may escape Lord Tywin. Jon took the letter back. Why would he help us
now? He never did before.
Well, said Sam, he will not want it said that Stannis rode to the defense of the realm whilst
King Tommen was playing with his toys. That would bring scorn down upon House Lannister.
Its death and destruction I want to bring down upon House Lannister, not scorn. Jon lifted up
the letter. The Nights Watch takes no part in the wars of the Seven Kingdoms, he read. Our
oaths are sworn to the realm, and the realm now stands in dire peril. Stannis Baratheon aids us
against our foes from beyond the Wall, though we are not his men...
Well, said Sam, squirming, were not. Are we?
I gave Stannis food, shelter, and the Nightfort, plus leave to settle some free folk in the Gift.
Thats all.
Lord Tywin will say it was too much.
Stannis says its not enough. The more you give a king the more he wants. We are walking on
a bridge of ice with an abyss on either side. Pleasing one king is difficult enough. Pleasing two is
hardly possible.
Yes, but... if the Lannisters should prevail and Lord Tywin decides that we betrayed the king
by aiding Stannis, it could mean the end of the Nights Watch. He has the Tyrells behind him,
with all the strength of Highgarden. And he did defeat Lord Stannis on the Blackwater. The
sight of blood might make Sam faint, but he knew how wars were won. His own father had seen
to that.
The Blackwater was one battle. Robb won all his battles and still lost his head. If Stannis can
raise the north...
Hes trying to convince himself, Sam realized, but he cant. The ravens had gone forth from
Castle Black in a storm of black wings, summoning the lords of the north to declare for Stannis
Baratheon and join their strength to his. Sam had sent out most of them himself. Thusfar only
one bird had returned, the one theyd sent to Karhold. Elsewise the silence had been thunderous.

Even if he should somehow win the northmen to his side, Sam did not see how Stannis could
hope to match the combined powers of Casterly Rock, Highgarden, and the Twins. Yet without
the north, his cause was surely doomed. As doomed as the Nights Watch, if Lord Tywin marks
us down as traitors. The Lannisters have northmen of their own. Lord Bolton and his bastard.
Stannis has the Karstarks. If he can win White Harbor...
If, Sam stressed. If not... my lord, even a paper shield is better than none.
Jon rattled the letter. I suppose so. He sighed, then took up a quill and scrawled a signature
across the bottom of the letter. Get the sealing wax. Sam heated a stick of black wax over a
candle and dribbled some onto the parchment, then watched as Jon pressed the Lord
Commanders seal down firmly on the puddle. Take this to Maester Aemon when you leave,
he commanded, and tell him to dispatch a bird to Kings Landing.
I will. Sam hesitated. My lord, if I might ask... I saw Gilly leaving. She was almost crying.
Val sent her to plead for Mance again.
Oh. Val was the sister of the woman the King-beyond-the-Wall had taken for his queen. The
wildling princess was what Stannis and his men were calling her. Her sister Dalla had died
during the battle, though no blade had ever touched her; she had perished giving birth to Mance
Rayders son. Rayder himself would soon follow her to the grave, if the whispers Sam had heard
had any truth to them. What did you tell her?
That I would speak to Stannis, though I doubt my words will sway him. A kings first duty is
to defend the realm, and Mance attacked it. His Grace is not like to forget that. My father used to
say that Stannis Baratheon was a just man. No one has ever said he was forgiving. Jon paused,
frowning. I would sooner take off Mances head myself. He was a man of the Nights Watch,
once. By rights, his life belongs to us.
Pyp says that Lady Melisandre means to give him to the flames, to work some sorcery.
Pyp should learn to hold his tongue. I have heard the same from others. Kings blood, to wake
a dragon. Where Melisandre thinks to find a sleeping dragon, no one is quite sure. Its nonsense.
Mances blood is no more royal than mine own. He has never worn a crown nor sat a throne.
Hes a brigand, nothing more. Theres no power in brigands blood.
The raven looked up from the floor. Blood, it screamed.
Jon paid no mind. I am sending Gilly away.
Oh. Sam bobbed his head. Well, thats... thats good, my lord. It would be the best thing for
her, to go somewhere warm and safe, well away from the Wall and the fighting.
Her and the boy. We will need to find another wet nurse for his milk brother.
Goats milk might serve, until you do. Its better for a babe than cows milk. Sam had read
that somewhere. He shifted in his seat. My lord, when I was looking through the annals I came
on another boy commander. Four hundred years before the Conquest. Osric Stark was ten when
he was chosen, but he served for sixty years. Thats four, my lord. Youre not even close to being
the youngest ever chosen. Youre fifth youngest, so far.
The younger four all being sons, brothers, or bastards of the King in the North. Tell me
something useful. Tell me of our enemy.

The Others. Sam licked his lips. They are mentioned in the annals, though not as often as I
would have thought. The annals Ive found and looked at, that is. Theres more I havent found, I
know. Some of the older books are falling to pieces. The pages crumble when I try and turn
them. And the really old books... either they have crumbled all away or they are buried
somewhere that I havent looked yet or... well, it could be that there are no such books, and never
were. The oldest histories we have were written after the Andals came to Westeros. The First
Men only left us runes on rocks, so everything we think we know about the Age of Heroes and
the Dawn Age and the Long Night comes from accounts set down by septons thousands of years
later. There are archmaesters at the Citadel who question all of it. Those old histories are full of
kings who reigned for hundreds of years, and knights riding around a thousand years before there
were knights. You know the tales, Brandon the Builder, Symeon Star-Eyes, Nights King... we
say that youre the nine hundred and ninety-eighth Lord Commander of the Nights Watch, but
the oldest list Ive found shows six hundred seventy-four commanders, which suggests that it
was written during...
Long ago, Jon broke in. What about the Others?
I found mention of dragonglass. The children of the forest used to give the Nights Watch a
hundred obsidian daggers every year, during the Age of Heroes. The Others come when it is
cold, most of the tales agree. Or else it gets cold when they come. Sometimes they appear during
snowstorms and melt away when the skies clear. They hide from the light of the sun and emerge
by night... or else night falls when they emerge. Some stories speak of them riding the corpses of
dead animals. Bears, direwolves, mammoths, horses, it makes no matter, so long as the beast is
dead. The one that killed Small Paul was riding a dead horse, so that parts plainly true. Some
accounts speak of giant ice spiders too. I dont know what those are. Men who fall in battle
against the Others must be burned, or else the dead will rise again as their thralls.
We knew all this. The question is, how do we fight them?
The armor of the Others is proof against most ordinary blades, if the tales can be believed,
said Sam, and their own swords are so cold they shatter steel. Fire will dismay them, though,
and they are vulnerable to obsidian. He remembered the one he had faced in the haunted forest,
and how it had seemed to melt away when he stabbed it with the dragonglass dagger Jon had
made for him. I found one account of the Long Night that spoke of the last hero slaying Others
with a blade of dragonsteel. Supposedly they could not stand against it.
Dragonsteel? Jon frowned. Valyrian steel?
That was my first thought as well.
So if I can just convince the lords of the Seven Kingdoms to give us their Valyrian blades, all
is saved? That wont be hard. His laugh had no mirth in it. Did you find who the Others are,
where they come from, what they want?
Not yet, my lord, but it may be that Ive just been reading the wrong books. There are
hundreds I have not looked at yet. Give me more time and I will find whatever there is to be
found.

There is no more time. Jon sounded sad. You need to get your things together, Sam. Youre
going with Gilly.
Going? For a moment Sam did not understand. Im going? To Eastwatch, my lord? Or...
where am I...
Oldtown.
Oldtown? It came out in a squeak. Horn Hill was close to Oldtown. Home. The notion made
him light-headed. My father.
Aemon as well.
Aemon? Maester Aemon? But... hes one hundred and two years old, my lord, he cant...
youre sending him and me? Who will tend the ravens? If theyre sick or wounded, who...
Clydas. Hes been with Aemon for years.
Clydas is only a steward, and his eyes are going bad. You need a maester. Maester Aemon is
so frail, a sea voyage... He thought of the Arbor and the Arbor Queen, and almost choked on his
tongue. It might... hes old, and...
His life will be at risk. I am aware of that, Sam, but the risk is greater here. Stannis knows who
Aemon is. If the red woman requires kings blood for her spells...
Oh. Sam paled.
Dareon will join you at Eastwatch. My hope is that his songs will win some men for us in the
south. The Blackbird will deliver you to Braavos. From there youll arrange your own passage to
Oldtown. If you still mean to claim Gillys babe as your bastard, send her and the child on to
Horn Hill. Elsewise, Aemon will find a servants place for her at the Citadel.
My b-b-bastard. He had said that, yes, but... All that water. I could drown. Ships sink all the
time, and autumn is a stormy season. Gilly would be with him, though, and the babe would grow
up safe. Yes, I... my mother and my sisters will help Gilly with the child. I can send a letter, I
wont need to go to Horn Hill myself. Dareon could see her to Oldtown just as well as me.
Im... Ive been working at my archery every afternoon with Ulmer, as you commanded... well,
except when Im in the vaults, but you told me to find out about the Others. The longbow makes
my shoulders ache and raises blisters on my fingers. He showed Jon where one had burst. I
still do it, though. I can hit the target more often than not now, but Im still the worst archer who
ever bent a bow. I like Ulmers stories, though. Someone needs to write them down and put them
in a book.
You do it. They have parchment and ink at the Citadel, as well as longbows. I will expect you
to continue with your practice. Sam, the Nights Watch has hundreds of men who can loose an
arrow, but only a handful who can read or write. I need you to become my new maester.
The word made him flinch. No, Father, please, I wont speak of it again, I swear it by the
Seven. Let me out, please let me out. My lord, I... my work is here, the books...
... will be here when you return to us.
Sam put a hand to his throat. He could almost feel the chain there, choking him. My lord, the
Citadel... they make you cut up corpses there. They make you wear a chain about your neck. If
it is chains you want, come with me. For three days and three nights Sam had sobbed himself to

sleep, manacled hand and foot to a wall. The chain around his throat was so tight it broke the
skin, and whenever he rolled the wrong way in his sleep it would cut off his breath. I cannot
wear a chain.
You can. You will. Maester Aemon is old and blind. His strength is leaving him. Who will
take his place when he dies? Maester Mullin at the Shadow Tower is more fighter than scholar,
and Maester Harmune of Eastwatch is drunk more than hes sober.
If you ask the Citadel for more maesters...
I mean to. Well have need of every one. Aemon Targaryen is not so easily replaced,
however. Jon seemed puzzled. I was certain this would please you. There are so many books at
the Citadel that no man can hope to read them all. You would do well there, Sam. I know you
would.
No. I could read the books, but... a m-maester must be a healer and b-b-blood makes me faint.
He held out a shaky hand for Jon to see. Im Sam the Scared, not Sam the Slayer.
Scared? Of what? The chidings of old men? Sam, you saw the wights come swarming up the
Fist, a tide of living dead men with black hands and bright blue eyes. You slew an Other.
It was the d-d-d-dragonglass, not me.
Be quiet. You lied and schemed and plotted to make me Lord Commander. You will obey me.
Youll go to the Citadel and forge a chain, and if you have to cut up corpses, so be it. At least in
Oldtown the corpses wont object.
He doesnt understand. My lord, Sam said, my f-f-f-father, Lord Randyll, he, he, he, he, he...
the life of a maester is a life of servitude. He was babbling, he knew. No son of House Tarly
will ever wear a chain. The men of Horn Hill do not bow and scrape to petty lords. If it is chains
you want, come with me. Jon, I cannot disobey my father.
Jon, hed said, but Jon was gone. It was Lord Snow who faced him now, grey eyes as hard as
ice. You have no father, said Lord Snow. Only brothers. Only us. Your life belongs to the
Nights Watch, so go and stuff your smallclothes into a sack, along with anything else you care
to take to Oldtown. You leave an hour before sunrise. And heres another order. From this day
forth, you will not call yourself a craven. Youve faced more things this past year than most men
face in a lifetime. You can face the Citadel, but youll face it as a Sworn Brother of the Nights
Watch. I cant command you to be brave, but I can command you to hide your fears. You said
the words, Sam. Remember?
I am the sword in the darkness. But he was wretched with a sword, and the darkness scared
him. I... Ill try.
You wont try. You will obey.
Obey. Mormonts raven flapped its great black wings.
As my lord commands. Does... does Maester Aemon know?
It was as much his idea as mine. Jon opened the door for him. No farewells. The fewer folk
who know of this, the better. An hour before first light, by the lichyard.
Sam did not recall leaving the armory. The next thing he knew he was stumbling through mud
and patches of old snow, toward Maester Aemons chambers. I could hide, he told himself. I

could hide in the vaults amongst the books. I could live down there with the mouse and sneak up
at night to steal food. Crazed thoughts, he knew, as futile as they were desperate. The vaults were
the first place they would look for him. The last place they would look for him was beyond the
Wall, but that was even madder. The wildlings would catch me and kill me slowly. They might
burn me alive, the way the red woman means to burn Mance Rayder.
When he found Maester Aemon in the rookery, he gave him Jons letter and blurted out his
fears in a great green gush of words. He does not understand. Sam felt as if he might throw up.
If I don a chain, my lord f-f-f-father... he, he, he...
My own father raised the same objections when I chose a life of service, the old man said. It
was his father who sent me to the Citadel. King Daeron had sired four sons, and three had sons
of their own. Too many dragons are as dangerous as too few, I heard His Grace tell my lord
father, the day they sent me off. Aemon raised a spotted hand to the chain of many metals that
dangled loose about his thin neck. The chain is heavy, Sam, but my grandsire had the right of it.
So does your Lord Snow.
Snow, a raven muttered. Snow, another echoed. All of them picked it up then. Snow,
snow, snow, snow, snow. Sam had taught them that word. There was no help here, he saw.
Maester Aemon was as trapped as he was. He will die at sea, he thought, despairing. He is too
old to survive such a voyage. Gillys little son may die as well, hes not as large and strong as
Dallas boy. Does Jon mean to kill us all?
The next morning, Sam found himself saddling the mare hed ridden from Horn Hill and
leading her toward the lichyard beside the eastern road. Her saddlebags bulged with cheese and
sausages and hard-cooked eggs, and half a salted ham that Three-Finger Hobb had given him on
his name day. Youre a man who appreciates cooking, Slayer, the cook had said. We need
more o your sort. The ham would help, no doubt. Eastwatch was a long cold ride away, and
there were no towns nor inns in the shadow of the Wall.
The hour before dawn was dark and still. Castle Black seemed strangely hushed. At the
lichyard, a pair of two-wheeled wayns awaited him, along with Black Jack Bulwer and a dozen
seasoned rangers, tough as the garrons they rode. Kedge Whiteye cursed loudly when his one
good eye spied Sam. Dont mind him, Slayer, said Black Jack. He lost a wager, said wed
need to drag you out squealing from beneath some bed.
Maester Aemon was too frail to ride a horse, so a wayn had been made ready for him, its bed
heaped high with furs, and a leather awning fastened overhead to keep off the rain and snow.
Gilly and her child would ride with him. The second wayn would carry their clothing and
possessions, along with a chest of rare old books that Aemon thought the Citadel might lack.
Sam had spent half the night searching for them, though hed found only one in four. And a good
thing, or wed need another wayn.
When the maester appeared, he was bundled up in a bearskin three times his size. As Clydas led
him toward the wayn, a gust of wind came up, and the old man staggered. Sam hurried to his side
and put an arm about him. Another gust like that could blow him over the Wall. Keep hold of
my arm, maester. Its not far.

The blind man nodded as the wind pushed back their hoods. It is always warm in Oldtown.
There is an inn on an island in the Honeywine where I used to go when I was a young novice. It
will be pleasant to sit there once again, sipping cider.
By the time they got the maester into the wayn, Gilly had appeared, the child bundled in her
arms. Beneath her hood her eyes were red from crying. Jon turned up at the same time, with
Dolorous Edd. Lord Snow, Maester Aemon called, I left a book for you in my chambers. The
Jade Compendium. It was written by the Volantene adventurer Colloquo Votar, who traveled to
the east and visited all the lands of the Jade Sea. There is a passage you may find of interest. Ive
told Clydas to mark it for you.
Ill be sure to read it, Jon Snow replied.
A line of pale snot ran from Maester Aemons nose. He wiped it away with the back of his
glove. Knowledge is a weapon, Jon. Arm yourself well before you ride forth to battle.
I will. A light snow had begun to fall, the big soft flakes drifting down lazily from the sky.
Jon turned to Black Jack Bulwer. Make as good a time as you can, but take no foolish risks.
You have an old man and a suckling babe with you. See that you keep them warm and well fed.
You do the same, mlord, said Gilly. You do the same for tother. Find another wet nurse,
like you said. You promised me you would. The boy... Dallas boy... the little prince, I mean...
you find him some good woman, so he grows up big and strong.
You have my word, Jon Snow said solemnly.
Dont you name him. Dont you do that till hes past two years. Its ill luck to name them
when theyre still on the breast. You crows may not know that, but its true.
As you command, my lady.
A spasm of anger flashed across Gillys face. Dont you call me that. Im a mother, not a lady.
Im Crasters wife and Crasters daughter, and a mother.
Dolorous Edd took the babe as Gilly climbed into the wayn and covered her legs with some
musty pelts. By then the eastern sky was more grey than black. Left Hand Lew was anxious to be
off. Edd handed the infant up and Gilly put him to her breast. This may be the last I ever see of
Castle Black, thought Sam as he hoisted himself atop his mare. As much as he had once hated
Castle Black, it was tearing him apart to leave it.
Lets do this, Bulwer commanded. A whip snapped, and the wayns began to rumble slowly
down the rutted road as the snow came down around them. Sam lingered beside Clydas and
Dolorous Edd and Jon Snow. Well, he said, farewell.
And to you, Sam, said Dolorous Edd. Your boats not like to sink, I dont think. Boats only
sink when Im aboard.
Jon was watching the wayns. The first time I saw Gilly, he said, she was pressed back
against the wall of Crasters Keep, this skinny dark-haired girl with her big belly, cringing away
from Ghost. He had gotten in among her rabbits, and I think she was frightened that he would
tear her open and devour the babe... but it was not the wolf she should have been afraid of, was
it?
No, Sam thought. Craster was the danger, her own father.

She has more courage than she knows.
So do you, Sam. Have a swift, safe voyage, and take care of her and Aemon and the child.
Jon smiled a strange, sad smile. And pull your hood up. The snowflakes are melting in your
hair.

ARYA
Faint and far away the light burned, low on the horizon, shining through the sea mists.
It looks like a star, said Arya.
The star of home, said Denyo.
His father was shouting orders. Sailors scrambled up and down the three tall masts and moved
along the rigging, reefing the heavy purple sails. Below, oarsmen heaved and strained over two
great banks of oars. The decks tilted, creaking, as the galleas Titans Daughter heeled to
starboard and began to come about.
The star of home. Arya stood at the prow, one hand resting on the gilded figurehead, a maiden
with a bowl of fruit. For half a heartbeat she let herself pretend that it was her home ahead.
But that was stupid. Her home was gone, her parents dead, and all her brothers slain but Jon
Snow on the Wall. That was where she had wanted to go. She told the captain as much, but even
the iron coin did not sway him. Arya never seemed to find the places she set out to reach. Yoren
had sworn to deliver her to Winterfell, only she had ended up in Harrenhal and Yoren in his
grave. When she escaped Harrenhal for Riverrun, Lem and Anguy and Tom o Sevens took her
captive and dragged her to the hollow hill instead. Then the Hound had stolen her and dragged
her to the Twins. Arya had left him dying by the river and gone ahead to Saltpans, hoping to take
passage for Eastwatch-by-the-Sea, only...
Braavos might not be so bad. Syrio was from Braavos, and Jaqen might be there as well. It was
Jaqen who had given her the iron coin. He hadnt truly been her friend, the way that Syrio had,
but what good had friends ever done her? I dont need any friends, so long as I have Needle. She
brushed the ball of her thumb across the swords smooth pommel, wishing, wishing...
If truth be told, Arya did not know what to wish for, any more than she knew what awaited her
beneath that distant light. The captain had given her passage but he had no time to speak with
her. Some of the crew shunned her, but others gave her giftsa silver fork, fingerless gloves, a
floppy woolen hat patched with leather. One man showed her how to tie sailors knots. Another
poured her thimble cups of fire wine. The friendly ones would tap their chests, repeating their
names over and over until Arya said them back, though none ever thought to ask her name. They
called her Salty, since shed come aboard at Saltpans, near the mouth of the Trident. It was as
good a name as any, she supposed.
The last of the nights stars had vanished... all but the pair dead ahead. Its two stars now.
Two eyes, said Denyo. The Titan sees us.
The Titan of Braavos. Old Nan had told them stories of the Titan back in Winterfell. He was a
giant as tall as a mountain, and whenever Braavos stood in danger he would wake with fire in his
eyes, his rocky limbs grinding and groaning as he waded out into the sea to smash the enemies.
The Braavosi feed him on the juicy pink flesh of little highborn girls, Nan would end, and
Sansa would give a stupid squeak. But Maester Luwin said the Titan was only a statue, and Old
Nans stories were only stories.

Winterfell is burned and fallen, Arya reminded herself. Old Nan and Maester Luwin were both
dead, most like, and Sansa too. It did no good to think of them. All men must die. That was what
the words meant, the words that Jaqen Hghar had taught her when he gave her the worn iron
coin. She had learned more Braavosi words since they left Saltpans, the words for please and
thank you and sea and star and fire wine, but she came to them knowing that all men must die.
Most of the Daughters crew had a smattering of the Common Tongue from nights ashore in
Oldtown and Kings Landing and Maidenpool, though only the captain and his sons spoke it well
enough to talk to her. Denyo was the youngest of those sons, a plump, cheerful boy of twelve
who kept his fathers cabin and helped his eldest brother do his sums.
I hope your Titan isnt hungry, Arya told him.
Hungry? Denyo said, confused.
It takes no matter. Even if the Titan did eat juicy pink girl flesh, Arya would not fear him.
She was a scrawny thing, no proper meal for a giant, and almost eleven, practically a woman
grown. And Salty isnt highborn, either. Is the Titan the god of Braavos? she asked. Or do
you have the Seven?
All gods are honored in Braavos. The captains son loved to talk about his city almost as
much as he loved to talk about his fathers ship. Your Seven have a sept here, the Sept-Beyond-
the-Sea, but only Westerosi sailors worship there.
They are not my Seven. They were my mothers gods, and they let the Freys murder her at the
Twins. She wondered whether she would find a godswood in Braavos, with a weirwood at its
heart. Denyo might know, but she could not ask him. Salty was from Saltpans, and what would a
girl from Saltpans know about the old gods of the north? The old gods are dead, she told herself,
with Mother and Father and Robb and Bran and Rickon, all dead. A long time ago, she
remembered her father saying that when the cold winds blow the lone wolf dies and the pack
survives. He had it all backwards. Arya, the lone wolf, still lived, but the wolves of the pack had
been taken and slain and skinned.
The Moonsingers led us to this place of refuge, where the dragons of Valyria could not find
us, Denyo said. Theirs is the greatest temple. We esteem the Father of Waters as well, but his
house is built anew whenever he takes his bride. The rest of the gods dwell together on an isle in
the center of the city. That is where you will find the... the Many-Faced God.
The Titans eyes seemed brighter now, and farther apart. Arya did not know any Many-Faced
God, but if he answered prayers, he might be the god she sought. Ser Gregor, she thought,
Dunsen, Raff the Sweetling, Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, Queen Cersei. Only six now. Joffrey was dead,
the Hound had slain Polliver, and shed stabbed the Tickler herself, and that stupid squire with
the pimple. I wouldnt have killed him if he hadnt grabbed me. The Hound had been dying
when she left him on the banks of the Trident, burning up with fever from his wound. I should
have given him the gift of mercy and put a knife into his heart.
Salty, look! Denyo took her by the arm and turned her. Can you see? There. He pointed.
The mists gave way before them, ragged grey curtains parted by their prow. The Titans
Daughter cleaved through the grey-green waters on billowing purple wings. Arya could hear the

cries of seabirds overhead. There, where Denyo pointed, a line of stony ridges rose sudden from
the sea, their steep slopes covered with soldier pines and black spruce. But dead ahead the sea
had broken through, and there above the open water the Titan towered, with his eyes blazing and
his long green hair blowing in the wind.
His legs bestrode the gap, one foot planted on each mountain, his shoulders looming tall above
the jagged crests. His legs were carved of solid stone, the same black granite as the sea monts on
which he stood, though around his hips he wore an armored skirt of greenish bronze. His
breastplate was bronze as well, and his head in his crested halfhelm. His blowing hair was made
of hempen ropes dyed green, and huge fires burned in the caves that were his eyes. One hand
rested atop the ridge to his left, bronze fingers coiled about a knob of stone; the other thrust up
into the air, clasping the hilt of a broken sword.
He is only a little bigger than King Baelors statue in Kings Landing, she told herself when
they were still well off to sea. As the galleas drove closer to where the breakers smashed against
the ridgeline, however, the Titan grew larger still. She could hear Denyos father bellowing
commands in his deep voice, and up in the rigging men were bringing in the sails. We are going
to row beneath the Titans legs. Arya could see the arrow slits in the great bronze breastplate,
and stains and speckles on the Titans arms and shoulders where the seabirds nested. Her neck
craned upward. Baelor the Blessed would not reach his knee. He could step right over the walls
of Winterfell.
Then the Titan gave a mighty roar.
The sound was as huge as he was, a terrible groaning and grinding, so loud it drowned out even
the captains voice and the crash of the waves against those pine-clad ridges. A thousand
seabirds took to the air at once, and Arya flinched until she saw that Denyo was laughing. He
warns the Arsenal of our coming, that is all, he shouted. You must not be afraid.
I never was, Arya shouted back. It was loud, is all.
Wind and wave had the Titans Daughter hard in hand now, driving her swiftly toward the
channel. Her double bank of oars stroked smoothly, lashing the sea to white foam as the Titans
shadow fell upon them. For a moment it seemed as though they must surely smash up against the
stones beneath his legs. Huddled by Denyo at the prow, Arya could taste salt where the spray had
touched her face. She had to look straight up to see the Titans head. The Braavosi feed him on
the juicy pink flesh of little highborn girls, she heard Old Nan say again, but she was not a little
girl, and she would not be frightened of a stupid statue.
Even so, she kept one hand on Needle as they slipped between his legs. More arrow slits dotted
the insides of those great stone thighs, and when Arya craned her neck around to watch the
crows nest slip through with a good ten yards to spare, she spied murder holes beneath the
Titans armored skirts, and pale faces staring down at them from behind the iron bars.
And then they were past.
The shadow lifted, the pine-clad ridges fell away to either side, the winds dwindled, and they
found themselves moving through a great lagoon. Ahead rose another sea mont, a knob of rock
that pushed up from the water like a spiked fist, its stony battlements bristling with scorpions,

spitfires, and trebuchets. The Arsenal of Braavos, Denyo named it, as proud as if hed built it.
They can build a war galley there in a day. Arya could see dozens of galleys tied up at quays
and perched on launching slips. The painted prows of others poked from innumerable wooden
sheds along the stony shores, like hounds in a kennel, lean and mean and hungry, waiting for a
hunters horn to call them forth. She tried to count them, but there were too many, and more
docks and sheds and quays where the shoreline curved away.
Two galleys had come out to meet them. They seemed to skim upon the water like dragonflies,
their pale oars flashing. Arya heard the captain shouting to them and their own captains shouting
back, but she did not understand the words. A great horn sounded. The galleys passed to either
side of them, so close that she could hear the muffled sound of drums from within their purple
hulls, bom bom bom bom bom bom bom bom, like the beat of living hearts.
Then the galleys were behind them, and the Arsenal as well. Ahead stretched a broad expanse
of pea-green water rippled like a sheet of colored glass. From its wet heart arose the city proper,
a great sprawl of domes and towers and bridges, grey and gold and red. The hundred isles of
Braavos in the sea.
Maester Luwin had taught them about Braavos, but Arya had forgotten much of what hed said.
It was a flat city, she could see that even from afar, not like Kings Landing on its three high
hills. The only hills here were the ones that men had raised of brick and granite, bronze and
marble. Something else was missing as well, though it took her a few moments to realize what it
was. The city has no walls. But when she said as much to Denyo, he laughed at her. Our walls
are made of wood and painted purple, he told her. Our galleys are our walls. We need no
other.
The deck creaked behind them. Arya turned to find Denyos father looming over them in his
long captains coat of purple wool. Tradesman-Captain Ternesio Terys wore no whiskers and
kept his grey hair cut short and neat, framing his square, windburnt face. On the crossing she had
oft seen him jesting with his crew, but when he frowned men ran from him as if before a storm.
He was frowning now. Our voyage is at an end, he told Arya. We make for the Chequy Port,
where the Sealords customs officers will come aboard to inspect our holds. They will be half a
day at it, they always are, but there is no need for you to wait upon their pleasure. Gather your
belongings. I shall lower a boat, and Yorko will put you ashore.
Ashore. Arya bit her lip. She had crossed the narrow sea to get here, but if the captain had asked
she would have told him she wanted to stay aboard the Titans Daughter. Salty was too small to
man an oar, she knew that now, but she could learn to splice ropes and reef the sails and steer a
course across the great salt seas. Denyo had taken her up to the crows nest once, and she hadnt
been afraid at all, though the deck had seemed a tiny thing below her. I can do sums too, and
keep a cabin neat.
But the galleas had no need of a second boy. Besides, she had only to look at the captains face
to know how anxious he was to be rid of her. So Arya only nodded. Ashore, she said, though
ashore meant only strangers.

Valar dohaeris. He touched two fingers to his brow. I beg you remember Ternesio Terys and
the service he has done you.
I will, Arya said in a small voice. The wind tugged at her cloak, insistent as a ghost. It was
time she was away.
Gather your belongings, the captain had said, but there were few enough of those. Only the
clothes she was wearing, her little pouch of coins, the gifts the crew had given her, the dagger on
her left hip and Needle on her right.
The boat was ready before she was, and Yorko was at the oars. He was the captains son as
well, but older than Denyo and less friendly. I never said farewell to Denyo, she thought as she
clambered down to join him. She wondered if she would ever see the boy again. I should have
said farewell.
The Titans Daughter dwindled in their wake, while the city grew larger with every stroke of
Yorkos oars. A harbor was visible off to her right, a tangle of piers and quays crowded with big-
bellied whalers out of Ibben, swan ships from the Summer Isles, and more galleys than a girl
could count. Another harbor, more distant, was off to her left, beyond a sinking point of land
where the tops of half-drowned buildings thrust themselves above the water. Arya had never
seen so many big buildings all together in one place. Kings Landing had the Red Keep and the
Great Sept of Baelor and the Dragonpit, but Braavos seemed to boast a score of temples and
towers and palaces that were as large or even larger. I will be a mouse again, she thought glumly,
the way I was in Harrenhal before I ran away.
The city had seemed like one big island from where the Titan stood, but as Yorko rowed them
closer she saw that it was many small islands close together, linked by arched stone bridges that
spanned innumerable canals. Beyond the harbor she glimpsed streets of grey stone houses, built
so close they leaned one upon the other. To Aryas eyes they were queer-looking, four and five
stories tall and very skinny, with sharp-peaked tile roofs like pointed hats. She saw no thatch,
and only a few timbered houses of the sort she knew in Westeros. They have no trees, she
realized. Braavos is all stone, a grey city in a green sea.
Yorko swung them north of the docks and down the gullet of a great canal, a broad green
waterway that ran straight into the heart of the city. They passed under the arches of a carved
stone bridge, decorated with half a hundred kinds of fish and crabs and squids. A second bridge
appeared ahead, this one carved in lacy leafy vines, and beyond that a third, gazing down on
them from a thousand painted eyes. The mouths of lesser canals opened to either side, and others
still smaller off of those. Some of the houses were built above the waterways, she saw, turning
the canals into a sort of tunnel. Slender boats slid in and out among them, wrought in the shapes
of water serpents with painted heads and upraised tails. Those were not rowed but poled, she
saw, by men who stood at their sterns in cloaks of grey and brown and deep moss green. She saw
huge flat-bottomed barges too, heaped high with crates and barrels and pushed along by twenty
polemen to a side, and fancy floating houses with lanterns of colored glass, velvet drapes, and
brazen figureheads. Off in the far distance, looming above canals and houses both, was a massive
grey stone roadway of some kind, supported by three tiers of mighty arches marching away south

into the haze. Whats that? Arya asked Yorko, pointing. The sweetwater river, he told her.
It brings fresh water from the mainland, across the mudflats and the briny shallows. Good sweet
water for the fountains.
When she looked behind her, the harbor and lagoon were lost to sight. Ahead, a row of mighty
statues stood along both sides of the channel, solemn stone men in long bronze robes, spattered
with the droppings of the seabirds. Some held books, some daggers, some hammers. One
clutched a golden star in his upraised hand. Another was upending a stone flagon to send an
endless stream of water splashing down into the canal. Are they gods? asked Arya.
Sealords, said Yorko. The Isle of the Gods is farther on. See? Six bridges down, on the right
bank. That is the Temple of the Moonsingers.
It was one of those that Arya had spied from the lagoon, a mighty mass of snow-white marble
topped by a huge silvered dome whose milk glass windows showed all the phases of the moon. A
pair of marble maidens flanked its gates, tall as the Sealords, supporting a crescent-shaped lintel.
Beyond it stood another temple, a red stone edifice as stern as any fortress. Atop its great square
tower a fire blazed in an iron brazier twenty feet across, whilst smaller fires flanked its brazen
doors. The red priests love their fires, Yorko told her. The Lord of Light is their god, red
Rhllor.
I know. Arya remembered Thoros of Myr in his bits of old armor, worn over robes so faded that
he had seemed more a pink priest than a red one. Yet his kiss had brought Lord Beric back from
death. She watched the red gods house drift by, wondering whether these Braavosi priests of his
could do the same.
Next came a huge brick structure festooned with lichen. Arya might have taken it for a
storehouse had not Yorko said, That is the Holy Refuge, where we honor the small gods the
world has forgotten. You will hear it called the Warren too. A small canal ran between the
Warrens looming lichen-covered walls, and there he swung them right. They passed through a
tunnel and out again into the light. More shrines loomed up to either side.
I never knew there were so many gods, Arya said.
Yorko grunted. They went around a bend and beneath another bridge. On their left appeared a
rocky knoll with a windowless temple of dark grey stone at its top. A flight of stone steps led
from its doors down to a covered dock.
Yorko backed the oars, and the boat bumped gently against stone pilings. He grasped an iron
ring set to hold them for a moment. Here I leave you.
The dock was shadowed, the steps steep. The temples black tile roof came to a sharp peak, like
the houses along the canals. Arya chewed her lip. Syrio came from Braavos. He might have
visited this temple. He might have climbed those steps. She grabbed a ring and pulled herself up
onto the dock.
You know my name, said Yorko from the boat.
Yorko Terys.
Valar dohaeris. He pushed off with his oar and drifted back off into the deeper water. Arya
watched him row back the way theyd come, until he vanished in the shadows of the bridge. As

the swish of oars faded, she could almost hear the beating of her heart. Suddenly she was
somewhere else... back in Harrenhal with Gendry, maybe, or with the Hound in the woods along
the Trident. Salty is a stupid child, she told herself. I am a wolf, and will not be afraid. She patted
Needles hilt for luck and plunged into the shadows, taking the steps two at a time so no one
could ever say shed been afraid.
At the top she found a set of carved wooden doors twelve feet high. The left-hand door was
made of weirwood pale as bone, the right of gleaming ebony. In their center was a carved moon
face; ebony on the weirwood side, weirwood on the ebony. The look of it reminded her somehow
of the heart tree in the godswood at Winterfell. The doors are watching me, she thought. She
pushed upon both doors at once with the flat of her gloved hands, but neither one would budge.
Locked and barred. Let me in, you stupid, she said. I crossed the narrow sea. She made a fist
and pounded. Jaqen told me to come. I have the iron coin. She pulled it from her pouch and
held it up. See? Valar morghulis.
The doors made no reply, except to open.
They opened inward all in silence, with no human hand to move them. Arya took a step
forward, and another. The doors closed behind her, and for a moment she was blind. Needle was
in her hand, though she did not remember drawing it.
A few candles burned along the walls, but gave so little light that Arya could not see her own
feet. Someone was whispering, too softly for her to make out words. Someone else was weeping.
She heard light footfalls, leather sliding over stone, a door opening and closing. Water, I hear
water too.
Slowly her eyes adjusted. The temple seemed much larger within than it had without. The septs
of Westeros were seven-sided, with seven altars for the seven gods, but here there were more
gods than seven. Statues of them stood along the walls, massive and threatening. Around their
feet red candles flickered, as dim as distant stars. The nearest was a marble woman twelve feet
tall. Real tears were trickling from her eyes, to fill the bowl she cradled in her arms. Beyond her
was a man with a lions head seated on a throne, carved of ebony. On the other side of the doors,
a huge horse of bronze and iron reared up on two great legs. Farther on she could make out a
great stone face, a pale infant with a sword, a shaggy black goat the size of an aurochs, a hooded
man leaning on a staff. The rest were only looming shapes to her, half-seen through the gloom.
Between the gods were hidden alcoves thick with shadows, with here and there a candle burning.
Silent as a shadow, Arya moved between rows of long stone benches, her sword in hand. The
floor was made of stone, her feet told her; not polished marble like the floor of the Great Sept of
Baelor, but something rougher. She passed some women whispering together. The air was warm
and heavy, so heavy that she yawned. She could smell the candles. The scent was unfamiliar, and
she put it down to some queer incense, but as she got deeper into the temple, they seemed to
smell of snow and pine needles and hot stew. Good smells, Arya told herself, and felt a little
braver. Brave enough to slip Needle back into its sheath.
In the center of the temple she found the water she had heard; a pool ten feet across, black as
ink and lit by dim red candles. Beside it sat a young man in a silvery cloak, weeping softly. She

watched him dip a hand in the water, sending scarlet ripples racing across the pool. When he
drew his fingers back he sucked them, one by one. He must be thirsty. There were stone cups
along the rim of the pool. Arya filled one and brought it to him, so he could drink. The young
man stared at her for a long moment when she offered it to him. Valar morghulis, he said.
Valar dohaeris, she replied.
He drank deep, and dropped the cup into the pool with a soft plop. Then he pushed himself to
his feet, swaying, holding his belly. For a moment Arya thought he was going to fall. It was only
then that she saw the dark stain below his belt, spreading as she watched. Youre stabbed, she
blurted, but the man paid her no mind. He lurched unsteadily toward the wall and crawled into an
alcove onto a hard stone bed. When Arya peered around, she saw other alcoves too. On some
there were old people sleeping.
No, a half-remembered voice seemed to whisper in her head. They are dead, or dying. Look
with your eyes.
A hand touched her arm.
Arya spun away, but it was only a little girl: a pale little girl in a cowled robe that seemed to
engulf her, black on the right side and white on the left. Beneath the cowl was a gaunt and bony
face, hollow cheeks, and dark eyes that looked as big as saucers. Dont grab me, Arya warned
the waif. I killed the boy who grabbed me last.
The girl said some words that Arya did not know.
She shook her head. Dont you know the Common Tongue?
A voice behind her said, I do.
Arya did not like the way they kept surprising her. The hooded man was tall, enveloped in a
larger version of the black-and-white robe the girl was wearing. Beneath his cowl all she could
see was the faint red glitter of candlelight reflecting off his eyes. What place is this? she asked
him.
A place of peace. His voice was gentle. You are safe here. This is the House of Black and
White, my child. Though you are young to seek the favor of the Many-Faced God.
Is he like the southron god, the one with seven faces?
Seven? No. He has faces beyond count, little one, as many faces as there are stars in the sky.
In Braavos, men worship as they will... but at the end of every road stands Him of Many Faces,
waiting. He will be there for you one day, do not fear. You need not rush to his embrace.
I only came to find Jaqen Hghar.
I do not know this name.
Her heart sank. He was from Lorath. His hair was white on one side and red on the other. He
said hed teach me secrets, and gave me this. The iron coin was clutched in her fist. When she
opened her fingers, it clung to her sweaty palm.
The priest studied the coin, though he made no move to touch it. The waif with the big eyes was
looking at it too. Finally, the cowled man said, Tell me your name, child.
Salty. I come from Saltpans, by the Trident.

Though she could not see his face, somehow she could feel him smiling. No, he said. Tell
me your name.
Squab, she answered this time.
Your true name, child.
My mother named me Nan, but they call me Weasel
Your name.
She swallowed. Arry. Im Arry.
Closer. And now the truth?
Fear cuts deeper than swords, she told herself. Arya. She whispered the word the first time.
The second time she threw it at him. I am Arya, of House Stark.
You are, he said, but the House of Black and White is no place for Arya, of House Stark.
Please, she said. I have no place to go.
Do you fear death?
She bit her lip. No.
Let us see. The priest lowered his cowl. Beneath he had no face; only a yellowed skull with a
few scraps of skin still clinging to the cheeks, and a white worm wriggling from one empty eye
socket. Kiss me, child, he croaked, in a voice as dry and husky as a death rattle.
Does he think to scare me? Arya kissed him where his nose should be and plucked the grave
worm from his eye to eat it, but it melted like a shadow in her hand.
The yellow skull was melting too, and the kindliest old man that she had ever seen was smiling
down at her. No one has ever tried to eat my worm before, he said. Are you hungry, child?
Yes, she thought, but not for food.

CERSEI
A cold rain was falling, turning the walls and ramparts of the Red Keep dark as blood.
The queen held the kings hand and led him firmly across the muddy yard to where her litter
waited with its escort. Uncle Jaime said I could ride my horse and throw pennies to the
smallfolk, the boy objected.
Do you want to catch a chill? She would not risk it; Tommen had never been as robust as
Joffrey. Your grandfather would want you to look a proper king at his wake. We will not appear
at the Great Sept wet and bedraggled. Bad enough I must wear mourning again. Black had
never been a happy color on her. With her fair skin, it made her look half a corpse herself. Cersei
had risen an hour before dawn to bathe and fix her hair, and she did not intend to let the rain
destroy her efforts.
Inside the litter, Tommen settled back against his pillows and peered out at the falling rain.
The gods are weeping for grandfather. Lady Jocelyn says the raindrops are their tears.
Jocelyn Swyft is a fool. If the gods could weep, they would have wept for your brother. Rain is
rain. Close the curtain before you let any more in. That mantle is sable, would you have it
soaked?
Tommen did as he was bid. His meekness troubled her. A king had to be strong. Joffrey would
have argued. He was never easy to cow. Dont slump so, she told Tommen. Sit like a king.
Put your shoulders back and straighten your crown. Do you want it to tumble off your head in
front of all your lords?
No, Mother. The boy sat straight and reached up to fix the crown. Joffs crown was too big
for him. Tommen had always inclined to plumpness, but his face seemed thinner now. Is he
eating well? She must remember to ask the steward. She could not risk Tommen growing ill, not
with Myrcella in the hands of the Dornishmen. He will grow into Joffs crown in time. Until he
did, a smaller one might be needed, one that did not threaten to swallow his head. She would
take it up with the goldsmiths.
The litter made its slow way down Aegons High Hill. Two Kingsguard rode before them,
white knights on white horses with white cloaks hanging sodden from their shoulders. Behind
came fifty Lannister guardsmen in gold and crimson.
Tommen peered through the drapes at the empty streets. I thought there would be more people.
When Father died, all the people came out to watch us go by.
This rain has driven them inside. Kings Landing had never loved Lord Tywin. He never
wanted love, though. You cannot eat love, nor buy a horse with it, nor warm your halls on a
cold night, she heard him tell Jaime once, when her brother had been no older than Tommen.
At the Great Sept of Baelor, that magnificence in marble atop Visenyas Hill, the little knot of
mourners were outnumbered by the gold cloaks that Ser Addam Marbrand had drawn up across
the plaza. More will turn out later, the queen told herself as Ser Meryn Trant helped her from the
litter. Only the highborn and their retinues were to be admitted to the morning service; there
would be another in the afternoon for the commons, and the evening prayers were open to all.

Cersei would need to return for that, so that the smallfolk might see her mourn. The mob must
have its show. It was a nuisance. She had offices to fill, a war to win, a realm to rule. Her father
would have understood that.
The High Septon met them at the top of the steps. A bent old man with a wispy grey beard, he
was so stooped by the weight of his ornate embroidered robes that his eyes were on a level with
the queens breasts... though his crown, an airy confection of cut crystal and spun gold, added a
good foot and a half to his height.
Lord Tywin had given him that crown to replace the one that was lost when the mob killed the
previous High Septon. They had pulled the fat fool from his litter and torn him apart, the day
Myrcella sailed for Dorne. That one was a great glutton, and biddable. This one... This High
Septon was of Tyrions making, Cersei recalled suddenly. It was a disquieting thought.
The old mans spotted hand looked like a chicken claw as it poked from a sleeve encrusted with
golden scrollwork and small crystals. Cersei knelt on the wet marble and kissed his fingers, and
bid Tommen to do the same. What does he know of me? How much did the dwarf tell him? The
High Septon smiled as he escorted her into the sept. But was it a threatening smile full of
unspoken knowledge, or just some vacuous twitch of an old mans wrinkled lips? The queen
could not be certain.
They made their way through the Hall of Lamps beneath colored globes of leaded glass,
Tommens hand in hers. Trant and Kettleblack flanked them, water dripping from their wet
cloaks to puddle on the floor. The High Septon walked slowly, leaning on a weirwood staff
topped by a crystal orb. Seven of the Most Devout attended him, shimmering in cloth-of-silver.
Tommen wore cloth-of-gold beneath his sable mantle, the queen an old gown of black velvet
lined with ermine. Thered been no time to have a new one made, and she could not wear the
same dress she had worn for Joffrey, nor the one shed buried Robert in.
At least I will not be expected to don mourning for Tyrion. I shall dress in crimson silk and
cloth-of-gold for that, and wear rubies in my hair. The man who brought her the dwarfs head
would be raised to lordship, she had proclaimed, no matter how mean and low his birth or
station. Ravens were carrying her promise to every part of the Seven Kingdoms, and soon
enough word would cross the narrow sea to the Nine Free Cities and the lands beyond. Let the
Imp run to the ends of the earth, he will not escape me.
The royal procession passed through the inner doors into the cavernous heart of the Great Sept,
and down a wide aisle, one of seven that met beneath the dome. To right and left, highborn
mourners sank to their knees as the king and queen went by. Many of her fathers bannermen
were here, and knights who had fought beside Lord Tywin in half a hundred battles. The sight of
them made her feel more confident. I am not without friends.
Under the Great Septs lofty dome of glass and gold and crystal, Lord Tywin Lannisters body
rested upon a stepped marble bier. At its head Jaime stood at vigil, his one good hand curled
about the hilt of a tall golden greatsword whose point rested on the floor. The hooded cloak he
wore was as white as freshly fallen snow, and the scales of his long hauberk were mother-of-
pearl chased with gold. Lord Tywin would have wanted him in Lannister gold and crimson, she

thought. It always angered him to see Jaime all in white. Her brother was growing his beard
again as well. The stubble covered his jaw and cheeks, and gave his face a rough, uncouth look.
He might at least have waited till Fathers bones were interred beneath the Rock.
Cersei led the king up three short steps, to kneel beside the body. Tommens eyes were filled
with tears. Weep quietly, she told him, leaning close. You are a king, not a squalling child.
Your lords are watching you. The boy swiped the tears away with the back of his hand. He had
her eyes, emerald green, as large and bright as Jaimes eyes had been when he was Tommens
age. Her brother had been such a pretty boy... but fierce as well, as fierce as Joffrey, a true lion
cub. The queen put her arm around Tommen and kissed his golden curls. He will need me to
teach him how to rule and keep him safe from his enemies. Some of them stood around them
even now, pretending to be friends.
The silent sisters had armored Lord Tywin as if to fight some final battle. He wore his finest
plate, heavy steel enameled a deep, dark crimson, with gold inlay on his gauntlets, greaves, and
breastplate. His rondels were golden sunbursts; a golden lioness crouched upon each shoulder; a
maned lion crested the greathelm beside his head. Upon his chest lay a longsword in a gilded
scabbard studded with rubies, his hands folded about its hilt in gloves of gilded mail. Even in
death his face is noble, she thought, although the mouth... The corners of her fathers lips curved
upward ever so slightly, giving him a look of vague bemusement. That should not be. She
blamed Pycelle; he should have told the silent sisters that Lord Tywin Lannister never smiled.
The man is as useless as nipples on a breastplate. That half smile made Lord Tywin seem less
fearful, somehow. That, and the fact that his eyes were closed. Her fathers eyes had always been
unsettling; pale green, almost luminous, flecked with gold. His eyes could see inside you, could
see how weak and worthless and ugly you were down deep. When he looked at you, you knew.
Unbidden, a memory came to her, of the feast King Aerys had thrown when Cersei first came to
court, a girl as green as summer grass. Old Merryweather had been nattering about raising the
duty on wine when Lord Rykker said, If we need gold, His Grace should sit Lord Tywin on his
chamber pot. Aerys and his lickspittles laughed loudly, whilst Father stared at Rykker over his
wine cup. Long after the merriment had died that gaze had lingered. Rykker turned away, turned
back, met Fathers eyes, then ignored them, drank a tankard of ale, and stalked off red-faced,
defeated by a pair of unflinching eyes.
Lord Tywins eyes are closed forever now, Cersei thought. It is my look they will flinch from
now, my frown that they must fear. I am a lion too.
It was gloomy within the sept with the sky so grey outside. If the rain ever stopped, the sun
would slant down through the hanging crystals to drape the corpse in rainbows. The Lord of
Casterly Rock deserved rainbows. He had been a great man. I shall be greater, though. A
thousand years from now, when the maesters write about this time, you shall be remembered
only as Queen Cerseis sire.
Mother. Tommen tugged her sleeve. What smells so bad?
My lord father. Death. She could smell it too; a faint whisper of decay that made her want to
wrinkle her nose. Cersei paid it no mind. The seven septons in the silver robes stood behind the

bier, beseeching the Father Above to judge Lord Tywin justly. When they were done, seventy-
seven septas gathered before the altar of the Mother and began to sing to her for mercy. Tommen
was fidgeting by then, and even the queens knees had begun to ache. She glanced at Jaime. Her
twin stood as if he had been carved from stone, and would not meet her eyes.
On the benches, their uncle Kevan knelt with his shoulders slumped, his son beside him. Lancel
looks worse than Father. Though only seventeen, he might have passed for seventy; grey-faced,
gaunt, with hollow cheeks, sunken eyes, and hair as white and brittle as chalk. How can Lancel
be among the living when Tywin Lannister is dead? Have the gods taken leave of their wits?
Lord Gyles was coughing more than usual and covering his nose with a square of red silk. He
can smell it too. Grand Maester Pycelle had his eyes closed. If he has fallen asleep, I swear I will
have him whipped. To the right of the bier knelt the Tyrells: the Lord of Highgarden, his hideous
mother and vapid wife, his son Garlan and his daughter Margaery. Queen Margaery, she
reminded herself; Joffs widow and Tommens wife-to-be. Margaery looked very like her
brother, the Knight of Flowers. The queen wondered if they had other things in common. Our
little rose has a good many ladies waiting attendance on her, night and day. They were with her
now, almost a dozen of them. Cersei studied their faces, wondering. Who is the most fearful, the
most wanton, the hungriest for favor? Who has the loosest tongue? She would need to make a
point of finding out.
It was a relief when the singing finally ended. The smell coming off her fathers corpse seemed
to have grown stronger. Most of the mourners had the decency to pretend that nothing was amiss,
but Cersei saw two of Lady Margaerys cousins wrinkling their little Tyrell noses. As she and
Tommen were walking back down the aisle the queen thought she heard someone mutter privy
and chortle, but when she turned her head to see who had spoken a sea of solemn faces gazed at
her blankly. They would never have dared make japes about him when he was still alive. He
would have turned their bowels to water with a look.
Back out in the Hall of Lamps, the mourners buzzed about them thick as flies, eager to shower
her with useless condolences. The Redwyne twins both kissed her hand, their father her cheeks.
Hallyne the Pyromancer promised her that a flaming hand would burn in the sky above the city
on the day her fathers bones went west. Between coughs, Lord Gyles told her that he had hired a
master stonecarver to make a statue of Lord Tywin, to stand eternal vigil beside the Lion Gate.
Ser Lambert Turnberry appeared with a patch over his right eye, swearing that he would wear it
until he could bring her the head of her dwarf brother.
No sooner had the queen escaped the clutches of that fool than she found herself cornered by
Lady Falyse of Stokeworth and her husband, Ser Balman Byrch. My lady mother sends her
regrets, Your Grace, Falyse burbled at her. Lollys has been taken to bed with the child and she
felt the need to stay with her. She begs that you forgive her, and said I should ask you... my
mother admired your late father above all other men. Should my sister have a little boy, it is her
wish that we might name him Tywin, if... if it please you.
Cersei stared at her, aghast. Your lackwit sister gets herself raped by half of Kings Landing,
and Tanda thinks to honor the bastard with my lord fathers name? I think not.

Falyse flinched back as if shed been slapped, but her husband only stroked his thick blond
mustache with a thumb. I told Lady Tanda as much. We shall find a more, ah... a more fitting
name for Lollyss bastard, you have my word.
See that you do. Cersei showed them a shoulder and moved away. Tommen had fallen into
the clutches of Margaery Tyrell and her grandmother, she saw. The Queen of Thorns was so
short that for an instant Cersei took her for another child. Before she could rescue her son from
the roses, the press brought her face-to-face with her uncle. When the queen reminded him of
their meeting later, Ser Kevan gave a weary nod and begged leave to withdraw. But Lancel
lingered, the very picture of a man with one foot in the grave. But is he climbing in or climbing
out?
Cersei forced herself to smile. Lancel, I am happy to see you looking so much stronger.
Maester Ballabar brought us such dire reports, we feared for your life. But I would have thought
you on your way to Darry by now, to take up your lordship. Her father had made Lancel a lord
after the Battle of the Blackwater, as a sop to his brother Kevan.
Not as yet. There are outlaws in my castle. Her cousins voice was as wispy as the mustache
on his upper lip. Though his hair had gone white, his mustache fuzz remained a sandy color.
Cersei had often gazed up at it while the boy was inside her, pumping dutifully away. It looks
like a smudge of dirt on his lip. She used to threaten to scrub it off with a little spit. The
riverlands have need of a strong hand, my father says.
A pity that theyre getting yours, she wanted to say. Instead she smiled. And you are to be wed
as well.
A gloomy look passed across the young knights ravaged face. A Frey girl, and not of my
choosing. She is not even maiden. A widow, of Darry blood. My father says that will help me
with the peasants, but the peasants are all dead. He reached for her hand. It is cruel, Cersei.
Your Grace knows that I love
House Lannister, she finished for him. No one can doubt that, Lancel. May your wife give
you strong sons. Best not let her lord grandfather host the wedding, though. I know you will do
many noble deeds in Darry.
Lancel nodded, plainly miserable. When it seemed that I might die, my father brought the
High Septon to pray for me. He is a good man. Her cousins eyes were wet and shiny, a childs
eyes in an old mans face. He says the Mother spared me for some holy purpose, so I might
atone for my sins.
Cersei wondered how he intended to atone for her. Knighting him was a mistake, and bedding
him a bigger one. Lancel was a weak reed, and she liked his newfound piety not at all; he had
been much more amusing when he was trying to be Jaime. What has this mewling fool told the
High Septon? And what will he tell his little Frey when they lie together in the dark? If he
confessed to bedding Cersei, well, she could weather that. Men were always lying about women;
she would put it down as the braggadocio of a callow boy smitten by her beauty. If he sings of
Robert and the strongwine, though... Atonement is best achieved through prayer, Cersei told
him. Silent prayer. She left him to think about that and girded herself to face the Tyrell host.

Margaery embraced her like a sister, which the queen found presumptuous, but this was not the
place to reproach her. Lady Alerie and the cousins contented themselves with kissing fingers.
Lady Graceford, who was large with child, asked the queens leave to name it Tywin if it were a
boy, or Lanna if it were a girl. Another one? she almost groaned. The realm will drown in
Tywins. She gave consent as graciously as she could, feigning delight.
It was Lady Merryweather who truly pleased her. Your Grace, that one said, in her sultry
Myrish tones, I have sent word to my friends across the narrow sea, asking them to seize the
Imp at once should he show his ugly face in the Free Cities.
Do you have many friends across the water?
In Myr, many. In Lys as well, and Tyrosh. Men of power.
Cersei could well believe it. The Myrish woman was too beautiful by half; long-legged and full-
breasted, with smooth olive skin, ripe lips, huge dark eyes, and thick black hair that always
looked as if shed just come from bed. She even smells of sin, like some exotic lotus. Lord
Merryweather and I wish only to serve Your Grace and the little king, the woman purred, with a
look that was as pregnant as Lady Graceford.
This one is ambitious, and her lord is proud but poor. We must speak again, my lady. Taena, is
it? You are most kind. I know that we shall be great friends.
Then the Lord of Highgarden descended on her.
Mace Tyrell was no more than ten years older than Cersei, yet she thought of him as her
fathers age, not her own. He was not quite so tall as Lord Tywin had been, but elsewise he was
bigger, with a thick chest and a gut grown even thicker. His hair was chestnut-colored, but there
were specks of white and grey in his beard. His face was often red. Lord Tywin was a great
man, an extraordinary man, he declared ponderously after he had kissed both her cheeks. We
shall never see his like again, I fear.
You are looking at his like, fool, Cersei thought. It is his daughter standing here before you. But
she needed Tyrell and the strength of Highgarden to keep Tommen on his throne, so all she said
was, He will be greatly missed.
Tyrell put a hand upon her shoulder. No man alive is fit to don Lord Tywins armor, that is
plain. Still, the realm goes on, and must be ruled. If there is aught that I might do to serve in this
dark hour, Your Grace need only ask.
If you want to be the Kings Hand, my lord, have the courage to say it plainly. The queen
smiled. Let him read into that as much as he likes. Surely my lord is needed in the Reach?
My son Willas is an able lad, the man replied, refusing to take her perfectly good hint. His
leg may be twisted but he has no want of wits. And Garlan will soon take Brightwater. Between
them the Reach will be in good hands, if it happens that I am needed elsewhere. The governance
of the realm must come first, Lord Tywin often said. And I am pleased to bring Your Grace good
tidings in that regard. My uncle Garth has agreed to serve as master of coin, as your lord father
wished. He is making his way to Oldtown to take ship. His sons will accompany him. Lord
Tywin mentioned something about finding places for the two of them as well. Perhaps in the
City Watch.

The queens smile had frozen so hard she feared her teeth might crack. Garth the Gross on the
small council and his two bastards in the gold cloaks... do the Tyrells think I will just serve the
realm up to them on a gilded platter? The arrogance of it took her breath away.
Garth has served me well as Lord Seneschal, as he served my father before me, Tyrell was
going on. Littlefinger had a nose for gold, I grant you, but Garth
My lord, Cersei broke in, I fear there has been some misunderstanding. I have asked Lord
Gyles Rosby to serve as our new master of coin, and he has done me the honor of accepting.
Mace gaped at her. Rosby? That... cougher? But... the matter was agreed, Your Grace. Garth is
on his way to Oldtown.
Best send a raven to Lord Hightower and ask him to make certain your uncle does not take
ship. We would hate for Garth to brave an autumn sea for nought. She smiled pleasantly.
A flush crept up Tyrells thick neck. This... your lord father assured me... He began to sputter.
Then his mother appeared and slid her arm through his own. It would seem that Lord Tywin
did not share his plans with our regent, I cant imagine why. Still, there tis, no use hectoring Her
Grace. She is quite right, you must write Lord Leyton before Garth boards a ship. You know the
sea will sicken him and make his farting worse. Lady Olenna gave Cersei a toothless smile.
Your council chambers will smell sweeter with Lord Gyles, though I daresay that coughing
would drive me to distraction. We all adore dear old uncle Garth, but the man is flatulent, that
cannot be gainsaid. I do abhor foul smells. Her wrinkled face wrinkled up even more. I caught
a whiff of something unpleasant in the holy sept, in truth. Mayhaps you smelled it too?
No, Cersei said coldly. A scent, you say?
More like a stink.
Perhaps you miss your autumn roses. We have kept you here too long. The sooner she rid the
court of Lady Olenna the better. Lord Tyrell would doubtless dispatch a goodly number of
knights to see his mother safely home, and the fewer Tyrell swords in the city, the more soundly
the queen would sleep.
I do long for the fragrances of Highgarden, I confess it, said the old lady, but of course I
cannot leave until I have seen my sweet Margaery wed to your precious little Tommen.
I await that day eagerly as well, Tyrell put in. Lord Tywin and I were on the point of setting
a date, as it happens. Perhaps you and I might take up that discussion, Your Grace.
Soon.
Soon will serve, said Lady Olenna with a sniff. Now come along, Mace, let Her Grace get
on with her... grief.
I will see you dead, old woman, Cersei promised herself as the Queen of Thorns tottered off
between her towering guardsmen, a pair of seven-footers that it amused her to call Left and
Right. Well see how sweet a corpse you make. The old woman was twice as clever as her lord
son, that was plain.
The queen rescued her son from Margaery and her cousins, and made for the doors. Outside,
the rain had finally stopped. The autumn air smelled sweet and fresh. Tommen took his crown
off. Put that back on, Cersei commanded him.

It makes my neck hurt, the boy said, but he did as he was bid. Will I be married soon?
Margaery says that as soon as were wed we can go to Highgarden.
You are not going to Highgarden, but you can ride back to the castle. Cersei beckoned to Ser
Meryn Trant. Bring His Grace a mount, and ask Lord Gyles if he would do me the honor of
sharing my litter. Things were moving more quickly than she had anticipated; there was no time
to be squandered.
Tommen was happy at the prospect of a ride, and of course Lord Gyles was honored by her
invitation... though when she asked him to be her master of coin, he began coughing so violently
that she feared he might die right then and there. But the Mother was merciful, and Gyles
eventually recovered sufficiently to accept, and even began coughing out the names of men he
wanted to replace, customs officers and wool factors appointed by Littlefinger, even one of the
keepers of the keys.
Name the cow what you will, so long as the milk flows. And should the question arise, you
joined the council yesterday.
Yester A fit of coughing bent him over. Yesterday. To be sure. Lord Gyles coughed into
a square of red silk, as if to hide the blood in his spittle. Cersei pretended not to notice.
When he dies I will find someone else. Perhaps she would recall Littlefinger. The queen could
not imagine that Petyr Baelish would be allowed to remain Lord Protector of the Vale for very
long, with Lysa Arryn dead. The Vale lords were already stirring, if what Pycelle said was true.
Once they take that wretched boy away from him, Lord Petyr will come crawling back.
Your Grace? Lord Gyles coughed, and dabbed his mouth. Might I... He coughed again. ...
ask who... Another series of coughs racked him. ... who will be the Kings Hand?
My uncle, she replied absently.
It was a relief to see the gates of the Red Keep looming large before her. She gave Tommen
over to the charge of his squires and retired gratefully to her own chambers to rest.
No sooner had she eased off her shoes than Jocelyn entered timidly to say that Qyburn was
without and craved audience. Send him in, the queen commanded. A ruler gets no rest.
Qyburn was old, but his hair still had more ash than snow in it, and the laugh lines around his
mouth made him look like some little girls favorite grandfather. A rather shabby grandfather,
though. The collar of his robe was frayed, and one sleeve had been torn and badly sewn. I must
beg Your Graces pardon for my appearance, he said. I have been down in the dungeons
making inquiries into the Imps escape, as you commanded.
And what have you discovered?
The night that Lord Varys and your brother disappeared, a third man also vanished.
Yes, the gaoler. What of him?
Rugen was the mans name. An undergaoler who had charge of the black cells. The chief
undergaoler describes him as portly, unshaven, gruff of speech. He held his appointment of the
old king, Aerys, and came and went as he pleased. The black cells have not oft been occupied in
recent years. The other turnkeys were afraid of him, it seems, but none knew much about him.

He had no friends, no kin. Nor did he drink or frequent brothels. His sleeping cell was damp and
dreary, and the straw he slept upon was mildewed. His chamber pot was overflowing.
I know all this. Jaime had examined Rugens cell, and Ser Addams gold cloaks had
examined it again.
Aye, Your Grace, said Qyburn, but did you know that under that stinking chamber pot was a
loose stone, which opened on a small hollow? The sort of place where a man might hide
valuables that he did not wish to be discovered?
Valuables? This was new. Coin, you mean? She had suspected all along that Tyrion had
somehow bought this gaoler.
Beyond a doubt. To be sure, the hole was empty when I found it. No doubt Rugen took his ill-
gotten treasure with him when he fled. But as I crouched over the hole with my torch, I saw
something glitter, so I scratched in the dirt until I dug it out. Qyburn opened his palm. A gold
coin.
Gold, yes, but the moment Cersei took it she could tell that it was wrong. Too small, she
thought, too thin. The coin was old and worn. On one side was a kings face in profile, on the
other side the imprint of a hand. This is no dragon, she said.
No, Qyburn agreed. It dates from before the Conquest, Your Grace. The king is Garth the
Twelfth, and the hand is the sigil of House Gardener.
Of Highgarden. Cersei closed her hand around the coin. What treachery is this? Mace Tyrell
had been one of Tyrions judges, and had called loudly for his death. Was that some ploy? Could
he have been plotting with the Imp all the while, conspiring at Fathers death? With Tywin
Lannister in his grave, Lord Tyrell was an obvious choice to be Kings Hand, but even so... You
will not speak of this with anyone, she commanded.
Your Grace may trust in my discretion. Any man who rides with a sellsword company learns
to hold his tongue, else he does not keep it long.
In my company as well. The queen put the coin away. She would think about it later. What
of the other matter?
Ser Gregor. Qyburn shrugged. I have examined him, as you commanded. The poison on the
Vipers spear was manticore venom from the east, I would stake my life on that.
Pycelle says no. He told my lord father that manticore venom kills the instant it reaches the
heart.
And so it does. But this venom has been thickened somehow, so as to draw out the Mountains
dying.
Thickened? Thickened how? With some other substance?
It may be as Your Grace suggests, though in most cases adulterating a poison only lessens its
potency. It may be that the cause is... less natural, let us say. A spell, I think.
Is this one as big a fool as Pycelle? So are you telling me that the Mountain is dying of some
black sorcery?
Qyburn ignored the mockery in her voice. He is dying of the venom, but slowly, and in
exquisite agony. My efforts to ease his pain have proved as fruitless as Pycelles. Ser Gregor is

overly accustomed to the poppy, I fear. His squire tells me that he is plagued by blinding
headaches and oft quaffs the milk of the poppy as lesser men quaff ale. Be that as it may, his
veins have turned black from head to heel, his water is clouded with pus, and the venom has
eaten a hole in his side as large as my fist. It is a wonder that the man is still alive, if truth be
told.
His size, the queen suggested, frowning. Gregor is a very large man. Also a very stupid one.
Too stupid to know when he should die, it seems. She held out her cup, and Senelle filled it
once again. His screaming frightens Tommen. It has even been known to wake me of a night. I
would say it is past time we summoned Ilyn Payne.
Your Grace, said Qyburn, mayhaps I might move Ser Gregor to the dungeons? His screams
will not disturb you there, and I will be able to tend to him more freely.
Tend to him? She laughed. Let Ser Ilyn tend to him.
If that is Your Graces wish, Qyburn said, but this poison... it would be useful to know more
about it, would it not? Send a knight to slay a knight and an archer to kill an archer, the smallfolk
often say. To combat the black arts... He did not finish the thought, but only smiled at her.
He is not Pycelle, that much is plain. The queen weighed him, wondering. Why did the Citadel
take your chain?
The archmaesters are all craven at heart. The grey sheep, Marwyn calls them. I was as skilled a
healer as Ebrose, but aspired to surpass him. For hundreds of years the men of the Citadel have
opened the bodies of the dead, to study the nature of life. I wished to understand the nature of
death, so I opened the bodies of the living. For that crime the grey sheep shamed me and forced
me into exile... but I understand the nature of life and death better than any man in Oldtown.
Do you? That intrigued her. Very well. The Mountain is yours. Do what you will with him,
but confine your studies to the black cells. When he dies, bring me his head. My father promised
it to Dorne. Prince Doran would no doubt prefer to kill Gregor himself, but we all must suffer
disappointments in this life.
Very good, Your Grace. Qyburn cleared his throat. I am not so well provided as Pycelle,
however. I must needs equip myself with certain...
I shall instruct Lord Gyles to provide you with gold sufficient for your needs. Buy yourself
some new robes as well. You look as though youve wandered up from Flea Bottom. She
studied his eyes, wondering how far she dared trust this one. Need I say that it will go ill for you
if any word of your... labors... should pass beyond these walls?
No, Your Grace. Qyburn gave her a reassuring smile. Your secrets are safe with me.
When he was gone, Cersei poured herself a cup of strongwine and drank it by the window,
watching the shadows lengthen across the yard and thinking about the coin. Gold from the
Reach. Why would an undergaoler in Kings Landing have gold from the Reach, unless he were
paid to help bring about Fathers death?
Try as she might, she could not seem to bring Lord Tywins face to mind without seeing that
silly little half smile and remembering the foul smell coming off his corpse. She wondered
whether Tyrion was somehow behind that as well. It is small and cruel, like him. Could Tyrion

have made Pycelle his catspaw? He sent the old man to the black cells, and this Rugen had
charge of those cells, she remembered. All the strings were tangled up together in ways she did
not like. This High Septon is Tyrions creature too, Cersei recalled suddenly, and Fathers poor
body was in his care from dark till dawn.
Her uncle arrived promptly at sunset, wearing a quilted doublet of charcoal-colored wool as
somber as his face. Like all the Lannisters, Ser Kevan was fair-skinned and blond, though at
five-and-fifty he had lost most of his hair. No one would ever call him comely. Thick of waist,
round of shoulder, with a square jutting chin that his close-cropped yellow beard did little to
conceal, he reminded her of some old mastiff... but a faithful old mastiff was the very thing that
she required.
They ate a simple supper of beets and bread and bloody beef with a flagon of Dornish red to
wash it all down. Ser Kevan said little and scarce touched his wine cup. He broods too much, she
decided. He needs to be put to work to get beyond his grief.
She said as much, when the last of the food had been cleared away and the servants had
departed. I know how much my father relied on you, Uncle. Now I must do the same.
You need a Hand, he said, and Jaime has refused you.
He is blunt. Very well. Jaime... I felt so lost with Father dead, I scarce knew what I was
saying. Jaime is gallant, but a bit of a fool, let us be frank. Tommen needs a more seasoned man.
Someone older...
Mace Tyrell is older.
Her nostrils flared. Never. Cersei pushed a lock of hair off her brow. The Tyrells overreach
themselves.
You would be a fool to make Mace Tyrell your Hand, Ser Kevan admitted, but a bigger fool
to make him your foe. Ive heard what happened in the Hall of Lamps. Mace should have known
better than to broach such matters in public, but even so, you were unwise to shame him in front
of half the court.
Better that than suffer another Tyrell on the council. His reproach annoyed her. Rosby will
make an adequate master of coin. Youve seen that litter of his, with its carvings and silk
draperies. His horses are better dressed than most knights. A man that rich should have no
problem finding gold. As for Handship... who better to finish my fathers work than the brother
who shared all his counsels?
Every man needs someone he can trust. Tywin had me, and once your mother.
He loved her very much. Cersei refused to think about the dead whore in his bed. I know
they are together now.
So I pray. Ser Kevan studied her face for a long moment before he replied. You ask much of
me, Cersei.
No more than my father did.
I am tired. Her uncle reached for his wine cup and took a swallow. I have a wife I have not
seen in two years, a dead son to mourn, another son about to marry and assume a lordship. Castle

Darry must be made strong again, its lands protected, its burned fields plowed and planted anew.
Lancel needs my help.
As does Tommen. Cersei had not expected Kevan to require coaxing. He never played coy
with Father. The realm needs you.
The realm. Aye. And House Lannister. He sipped his wine again. Very well. I will remain
and serve His Grace...
Very good, she started to say, but Ser Kevan raised his voice and bulled right over her.
... so long as you name me regent as well as Hand and take yourself back to Casterly Rock.
For half a heartbeat Cersei could only stare at him. I am the regent, she reminded him.
You were. Tywin did not intend that you continue in that role. He told me of his plans to send
you back to the Rock and find a new husband for you.
Cersei could feel her anger rising. He spoke of such, yes. And I told him it was not my wish to
wed again.
Her uncle was unmoved. If you are resolved against another marriage, I will not force it on
you. As to the other, though... you are the Lady of Casterly Rock now. Your place is there.
How dare you? she wanted to scream. Instead, she said, I am also the Queen Regent. My place
is with my son.
Your father thought not.
My father is dead.
To my grief, and the woe of all the realm. Open your eyes and look about you, Cersei. The
kingdom is in ruins. Tywin might have been able to set matters aright, but...
I shall set matters aright! Cersei softened her tone. With your help, Uncle. If you will serve
me as faithfully as you served my father
You are not your father. And Tywin always regarded Jaime as his rightful heir.
Jaime... Jaime has taken vows. Jaime never thinks, he laughs at everything and everyone and
says whatever comes into his head. Jaime is a handsome fool.
And yet he was your first choice to be the Kings Hand. What does that make you, Cersei?
I told you, I was sick with grief, I did not think
No, Ser Kevan agreed. Which is why you should return to Casterly Rock and leave the king
with those who do.
The king is my son! Cersei rose to her feet.
Aye, her uncle said, and from what I saw of Joffrey, you are as unfit a mother as you are a
ruler.
She threw the contents of her wine cup full in his face.
Ser Kevan rose with a ponderous dignity. Your Grace. Wine trickled down his cheeks and
dripped from his close-cropped beard. With your leave, might I withdraw?
By what right do you presume to give me terms? You are no more than one of my fathers
household knights.
I hold no lands, that is true. But I have certain incomes, and chests of coin set aside. My own
father forgot none of his children when he died, and Tywin knew how to reward good service. I

feed two hundred knights and can double that number if need be. There are freeriders who will
follow my banner, and I have the gold to hire sellswords. You would be wise not to take me
lightly, Your Grace... and wiser still not to make of me a foe.
Are you threatening me?
I am counseling you. If you will not yield the regency to me, name me your castellan for
Casterly Rock and make either Mathis Rowan or Randyll Tarly the Hand of the King.
Tyrell bannermen, both of them. The suggestion left her speechless. Is he bought? she
wondered. Has he taken Tyrell gold to betray House Lannister?
Mathis Rowan is sensible, prudent, well liked, her uncle went on, oblivious. Randyll Tarly is
the finest soldier in the realm. A poor Hand for peacetime, but with Tywin dead theres no better
man to finish this war. Lord Tyrell cannot take offense if you choose one of his own bannermen
as Hand. Both Tarly and Rowan are able men... and loyal. Name either one, and you make him
yours. You strengthen yourself and weaken Highgarden, yet Mace will likely thank you for it.
He gave a shrug. That is my counsel, take it or no. You may make Moon Boy your Hand for all
I care. My brother is dead, woman. I am going to take him home.
Traitor, she thought. Turncloak. She wondered how much Mace Tyrell had given him. You
would abandon your king when he needs you most, she told him. You would abandon
Tommen.
Tommen has his mother. Ser Kevans green eyes met her own, unblinking. A last drop of
wine trembled wet and red beneath his chin, and finally fell. Aye, he added softly, after a
pause, and his father too, I think.

JAIME
Ser Jaime Lannister, all in white, stood beside his fathers bier, five fingers curled about
the hilt of a golden greatsword.
At dusk, the interior of the Great Sept of Baelor turned dim and eerie. The last light of day
slanted down through the high windows, washing the towering likenesses of the Seven in a red
gloom. Around their altars, scented candles flickered whilst deep shadows gathered in the
transepts and crept silently across the marble floors. The echoes of the evensongs died away as
the last mourners were departing.
Balon Swann and Loras Tyrell remained when the rest had gone. No man can stand a vigil for
seven days and seven nights, Ser Balon said. When did you last sleep, my lord?
When my lord father was alive, said Jaime.
Allow me to stand tonight in your stead, Ser Loras offered.
He was not your father. You did not kill him. I did. Tyrion may have loosed the crossbow
bolt that slew him, but I loosed Tyrion. Leave me.
As my lord commands, said Swann. Ser Loras looked as if he might have argued further, but
Ser Balon took his arm and drew him off. Jaime listened to the echoes of their footfalls die away.
And then he was alone again with his lord father, amongst the candles and the crystals and the
sickly sweet smell of death. His back ached from the weight of his armor, and his legs felt almost
numb. He shifted his stance a bit and tightened his fingers around the golden greatsword. He
could not wield a sword, but he could hold one. His missing hand was throbbing. That was
almost funny. He had more feeling in the hand hed lost than in the rest of the body that
remained to him.
My hand is hungry for a sword. I need to kill someone. Varys, for a start, but first Id need to
find the rock hes hiding under. I commanded the eunuch to take him to a ship, not to your
bedchamber, he told the corpse. The blood is on his hands as much as... as Tyrions. The
blood is on his hands as much as mine, he meant to say, but the words stuck in his throat.
Whatever Varys did, I made him do.
He had waited in the eunuchs chambers that night, when at last he had decided not to let his
little brother die. As he waited, he had sharpened his dagger with one hand, taking a queer
comfort from the scrape-scrape-scrape of steel on stone. At the sound of footsteps he stood
beside the door. Varys entered in a wash of powder and lavender. Jaime stepped out behind him,
kicked him in the back of the knee, knelt on his chest, and shoved the knife up under his soft
white chin, forcing his head up. Why, Lord Varys, hed said pleasantly, fancy meeting you
here.
Ser Jaime? Varys panted. You frightened me.
I meant to. When he twisted the dagger, a trickle of blood ran down the blade. I was
thinking you might help me pluck my brother from his cell before Ser Ilyn lops his head off. It is
an ugly head, I grant you, but he only has the one.

Yes... well... if you would... remove the blade... yes, gently, as it please my lord, gently, oh,
Im pricked... The eunuch touched his neck and gaped at the blood on his fingers. I have
always abhorred the sight of my own blood.
Youll have more to abhor shortly, unless you help me.
Varys struggled to a sitting position. Your brother... if the Imp should vanish unaccountably
from his cell, q-questions would be asked. I would f-fear for my life...
Your life is mine. I do not care what secrets you know. If Tyrion dies, you will not long
outlive him, I promise you.
Ah. The eunuch sucked the blood off his fingers. You ask a dreadful thing... to loose the Imp
who slew our lovely king. Or is it that you believe him innocent?
Innocent or guilty, Jaime had said, like the fool he was, a Lannister pays his debts. The
words had come so easy.
He had not slept since. He could see his brother now, the way the dwarf had grinned beneath
the stub of his nose as the torchlight licked his face. You poor stupid blind crippled fool, hed
snarled, in a voice thick with malice. Cersei is a lying whore, shes been fucking Lancel and
Osmund Kettleblack and probably Moon Boy for all I know. And I am the monster they all say I
am. Yes, I killed your vile son.
He never said he meant to kill our father. If he had, I would have stopped him. Then I would be
the kinslayer, not him.
Jaime wondered where Varys was hiding. Wisely, the master of whisperers had not returned to
his own chambers, nor had a search of the Red Keep turned him up. It might be that the eunuch
had taken ship with Tyrion, rather than remain to answer awkward questions. If so, the two of
them were well out to sea by now, sharing a flagon of Arbor gold in the cabin of a galley.
Unless my brother murdered Varys too, and left his corpse to rot beneath the castle. Down
there, it might be years before his bones were found. Jaime had led a dozen guards below, with
torches and ropes and lanterns. For hours they had groped through twisting passages, narrow
crawl spaces, hidden doors, secret steps, and shafts that plunged down into utter blackness.
Seldom had he felt so utterly a cripple. A man takes much for granted when he has two hands.
Ladders, for an instance. Even crawling did not come easy; not for nought do they speak of
hands and knees. Nor could he hold a torch and climb, as others could.
And all for naught. They found only darkness, dust, and rats. And dragons, lurking down
below. He remembered the sullen orange glow of the coals in the iron dragons mouth. The
brazier warmed a chamber at the bottom of a shaft where half a dozen tunnels met. On the floor
hed found a scuffed mosaic of the three-headed dragon of House Targaryen done in tiles of
black and red. I know you, Kingslayer, the beast seemed to be saying. I have been here all the
time, waiting for you to come to me. And it seemed to Jaime that he knew that voice, the iron
tones that had once belonged to Rhaegar, Prince of Dragonstone.
The day had been windy when he said farewell to Rhaegar, in the yard of the Red Keep. The
prince had donned his night-black armor, with the three-headed dragon picked out in rubies on

his breastplate. Your Grace, Jaime had pleaded, let Darry stay to guard the king this once, or
Ser Barristan. Their cloaks are as white as mine.
Prince Rhaegar shook his head. My royal sire fears your father more than he does our cousin
Robert. He wants you close, so Lord Tywin cannot harm him. I dare not take that crutch away
from him at such an hour.
Jaimes anger had risen up in his throat. I am not a crutch. I am a knight of the Kingsguard.
Then guard the king, Ser Jon Darry snapped at him. When you donned that cloak, you
promised to obey.
Rhaegar had put his hand on Jaimes shoulder. When this battles done I mean to call a
council. Changes will be made. I meant to do it long ago, but... well, it does no good to speak of
roads not taken. We shall talk when I return.
Those were the last words Rhaegar Targaryen ever spoke to him. Outside the gates an army had
assembled, whilst another descended on the Trident. So the Prince of Dragonstone mounted up
and donned his tall black helm, and rode forth to his doom.
He was more right than he knew. When the battle was done, there were changes made. Aerys
thought no harm could come to him if he kept me near, he told his fathers corpse. Isnt that
amusing? Lord Tywin seemed to think so; his smile was wider than before. He seems to enjoy
being dead.
It was queer, but he felt no grief. Where are my tears? Where is my rage? Jaime Lannister had
never lacked for rage. Father, he told the corpse, it was you who told me that tears were a
mark of weakness in a man, so you cannot expect that I should cry for you.
A thousand lords and ladies had come that morning to file past the bier, and several thousand
smallfolk after noon. They wore somber clothes and solemn faces, but Jaime suspected that
many and more were secretly delighted to see the great man brought low. Even in the west, Lord
Tywin had been more respected than beloved, and Kings Landing still remembered the Sack.
Of all the mourners, Grand Maester Pycelle had seemed the most distraught. I have served six
kings, he told Jaime after the second service, whilst sniffing doubtfully about the corpse, but
here before us lies the greatest man I ever knew. Lord Tywin wore no crown, yet he was all a
king should be.
Without his beard, Pycelle looked not only old, but feeble. Shaving him was the cruelest thing
Tyrion could have done, thought Jaime, who knew what it was to lose a part of yourself, the part
that made you who you were. Pycelles beard had been magnificent, white as snow and soft as
lambswool, a luxuriant growth that covered cheeks and chin and flowed down almost to his belt.
The Grand Maester had been wont to stroke it when he pontificated. It had given him an air of
wisdom, and concealed all manner of unsavory things: the loose skin dangling beneath the old
mans jaw, the small querulous mouth and missing teeth, warts and wrinkles and age spots too
numerous to count. Though Pycelle was trying to regrow what he had lost, he was failing. Only
wisps and tufts sprouted from his wrinkled cheeks and weak chin, so thin that Jaime could see
the splotchy pink skin beneath.

Ser Jaime, I have seen terrible things in my time, the old man said. Wars, battles, murders
most foul... I was a boy in Oldtown when the grey plague took half the city and three-quarters of
the Citadel. Lord Hightower burned every ship in port, closed the gates, and commanded his
guards to slay all those who tried to flee, be they men, women, or babes in arms. They killed him
when the plague had run its course. On the very day he reopened the port, they dragged him from
his horse and slit his throat, and his young sons as well. To this day the ignorant in Oldtown will
spit at the sound of his name, but Quenton Hightower did what was needed. Your father was that
sort of man as well. A man who did what was needed.
Is that why he looks so pleased with himself?
The vapors rising from the corpse were making Pycelles eyes water. The flesh... as the flesh
dries, the muscles grow taut and pull his lips upward. That is no smile, only a... a drying, that is
all. He blinked back tears. You must excuse me. I am so very tired. Leaning heavily on his
cane, Pycelle tottered slowly from the sept. That one is dying too, Jaime realized. Small wonder
Cersei called him useless.
To be sure, his sweet sister seemed to think half the court was either useless or treasonous;
Pycelle, the Kingsguard, the Tyrells, Jaime himself... even Ser Ilyn Payne, the silent knight who
served as headsman. As Kings Justice, the dungeons were his responsibility. Since he lacked a
tongue, Payne had largely left the running of those dungeons to his underlings, but Cersei held
him to blame for Tyrions escape all the same. It was my work, not his, Jaime almost told her.
Instead he had promised to find what answers he could from the chief undergaoler, a bentback
old man named Rennifer Longwaters.
I see you wonder, what sort of name is that? the man had cackled when Jaime went to
question him. It is an old name, tis true. I am not one to boast, but there is royal blood in my
veins. I am descended from a princess. My father told me the tale when I was a tad of a lad.
Longwaters had not been a tad of a lad for many a year, to judge from his spotted head and the
white hairs growing from his chin. She was the fairest treasure of the Maidenvault. Lord
Oakenfist the great admiral lost his heart to her, though he was married to another. She gave their
son the bastard name of Waters in honor of his father, and he grew to be a great knight, as did
his own son, who put the Long before the Waters so men might know that he was not basely
born himself. So I have a little dragon in me.
Yes, I almost mistook you for Aegon the Conqueror, Jaime had answered. Waters was a
common bastard name about Blackwater Bay; old Longwaters was more like to be descended
from some minor household knight than from a princess. As it matters, though, I have more
pressing concerns than your lineage.
Longwaters inclined his head. The lost prisoner.
And the missing gaoler.
Rugen, the old man supplied. An undergaoler. He had charge of the third level, the black
cells.
Tell me of him, Jaime had to say. A bloody farce. He knew who Rugen was, even if
Longwaters did not.

Unkempt, unshaven, coarse of speech. I misliked the man, tis true, I do confess it. Rugen was
here when I first came, twelve years past. He held his appointment from King Aerys. The man
was seldom here, it must be said. I made note of it in my reports, my lord. I most suredly did, I
give you my word upon it, the word of a man with royal blood.
Mention that royal blood once more and I may spill some of it, thought Jaime. Who saw these
reports?
Certain of them went to the master of coin, others to the master of whisperers. All to the chief
gaoler and the Kings Justice. It has always been so in the dungeons. Longwaters scratched his
nose. Rugen was here when need be, my lord. That must be said. The black cells are little used.
Before your lordships little brother was sent down, we had Grand Maester Pycelle for a time,
and before him Lord Stark the traitor. There were three others, common men, but Lord Stark
gave them to the Nights Watch. I did not think it good to free those three, but the papers were in
proper order. I made note of that in a report as well, you may be certain of it.
Tell me of the two gaolers who went to sleep.
Gaolers? Longwaters sniffed. Those were no gaolers. They were merely turnkeys. The
crown pays wages for twenty turnkeys, my lord, a full score, but during my time we have never
had more than twelve. We are supposed to have six undergaolers as well, two on each level, but
there are only the three.
You and two others?
Longwaters sniffed again. I am the chief undergaoler, my lord. I am above the undergaolers. I
am charged with keeping the counts. If my lord would like to look over my books, he will see
that all the figures are exact. Longwaters had consulted the great leather-bound book spread out
before him. At present, we have four prisoners on the first level and one on the second, in
addition to your lordships brother. The old man frowned. Who is fled, to be sure. Tis true. I
will strike him out. He took up a quill and began to sharpen it.
Six prisoners, Jaime thought sourly, while we pay wages for twenty turnkeys, six undergaolers,
a chief undergaoler, a gaoler, and a Kings Justice. I want to question these two turnkeys.
Rennifer Longwaters let up sharpening his quill and peered doubtfully up at Jaime. Question
them, my lord?
You heard me.
I did, my lord, I suredly did, and yet... my lord may question who he pleases, tis true, it is not
my place to say that he may not. But, ser, if I may be so bold, I do not think them like to answer.
They are dead, my lord.
Dead? By whose command?
Your own, I thought, or... the kings, mayhaps? I did not ask. It... it is not my place to question
the Kingsguard.
That was salt for his wound; Cersei had used his own men to do her bloody work, them and her
precious Kettleblacks.
You witless fools, Jaime had snarled at Boros Blount and Osmund Kettleblack later, in a
dungeon that stank of blood and death. What did you imagine you were doing?

No moren we was told, my lord. Ser Boros was shorter than Jaime, but heavier. Her Grace
commanded it. Your sister.
Ser Osmund hooked a thumb through his swordbelt. She said they were to sleep forever. So
my brothers and me, we saw to it.
That you did. One corpse sprawled facedown upon the table, like a man passed out at a feast,
but it was a puddle of blood beneath his head, not a puddle of wine. The second turnkey had
managed to push back from the bench and draw his dagger before someone shoved a longsword
through his ribs. His had been the longer, messier end. I told Varys no one was to be harmed in
this escape, Jaime thought, but I should have told my brother and my sister. This was ill done,
ser.
Ser Osmund shrugged. They wont be missed. Ill wager they was part of it, along with the one
whos gone missing.
No, Jaime could have told him. Varys dosed their wine to make them sleep. If so, we might
have coaxed the truth from them.... shes been fucking Lancel and Osmund Kettleblack and
Moon Boy for all I know... If I had a suspicious nature I might wonder why you were in such
haste to make certain these two were never put to the question. Did you need to silence them to
conceal your own part in this?
Us? Kettleblack choked on that. All we done was what the queen commanded. On my word
as your Sworn Brother.
Jaimes phantom fingers twitched as he said, Get Osney and Osfryd down here and clean up
this mess youve made. And the next time my sweet sister commands you to kill a man, come to
me first. Elsewise, stay out of my sight, ser.
The words echoed in his head in the dimness of Baelors Sept. Above him, all the windows had
gone black, and he could see the faint light of distant stars. The sun had set for good and all. The
stench of death was growing stronger, despite the scented candles. The smell reminded Jaime
Lannister of the pass below the Golden Tooth, where he had won a glorious victory in the first
days of the war. On the morning after the battle, the crows had feasted on victors and vanquished
alike, as once they had feasted on Rhaegar Targaryen after the Trident. How much can a crown
be worth, when a crow can dine upon a king?
There were crows circling the seven towers and great dome of Baelors Sept even now, Jaime
suspected, their black wings beating against the night air as they searched for a way inside. Every
crow in the Seven Kingdoms should pay homage to you, Father. From Castamere to the
Blackwater, you fed them well. That notion pleased Lord Tywin; his smile widened further.
Bloody hell, hes grinning like a bridegroom at his bedding.
That was so grotesque it made Jaime laugh aloud.
The sound echoed through the transepts and crypts and chapels, as if the dead interred within
the walls were laughing too. Why not? This is more absurd than a mummers farce, me standing
vigil for a father I helped to slay, sending men forth to capture the brother I helped to free... He
had commanded Ser Addam Marbrand to search the Street of Silk. Look under every bed, you
know how fond my brother is of brothels. The gold cloaks would find more of interest beneath

the whores skirts than beneath their beds. He wondered how many bastard children would be
born of the pointless search.
Unbidden, his thoughts went to Brienne of Tarth. Stupid stubborn ugly wench. He wondered
where she was. Father, give her strength. Almost a prayer... but was it the god he was invoking,
the Father Above whose towering gilded likeness glimmered in the candlelight across the sept?
Or was he praying to the corpse that lay before him? Does it matter? They never listened, either
one. The Warrior had been Jaimes god since he was old enough to hold a sword. Other men
might be fathers, sons, husbands, but never Jaime Lannister, whose sword was as golden as his
hair. He was a warrior, and that was all he would ever be.
I should tell Cersei the truth, admit that it was me who freed our little brother from his cell. The
truth had worked so splendidly with Tyrion, after all. I killed your vile son, and now Im off to
kill your father too. Jaime could hear the Imp laughing in the gloom. He turned his head to look,
but the sound was only his own laughter coming back at him. He closed his eyes, and just as
quickly snapped them open. I must not sleep. If he slept, he might dream. Oh, how Tyrion was
sniggering... . a lying whore... fucking Lancel and Osmund Kettleblack...
At midnight the hinges on the Fathers Doors gave a groan as several hundred septons filed in
for their devotions. Some were clad in the cloth-of-silver vestments and crystal coronals that
marked the Most Devout; their humbler brethren wore their crystals on thongs about their necks
and cinched white robes with seven-stranded belts, each plait a different color. Through the
Mothers Doors marched white septas from their cloister, seven abreast and singing softly, while
the silent sisters came single file down the Strangers Steps. Deaths handmaidens were garbed
in soft grey, their faces hooded and shawled so only their eyes could be seen. A host of brothers
appeared as well, in robes of brown and butternut and dun and even undyed roughspun, belted
with lengths of hempen rope. Some hung the iron hammer of the Smith about their necks, whilst
others carried begging bowls.
None of the devout paid Jaime any mind. They made a circuit of the sept, worshiping at each of
the seven altars to honor the seven aspects of the deity. To each god they made sacrifice, to each
they sang a hymn. Sweet and solemn rose their voices. Jaime closed his eyes to listen, but
opened them again when he began to sway. I am more weary than I knew.
It had been years since his last vigil. And I was younger then, a boy of fifteen years. He had
worn no armor then, only a plain white tunic. The sept where hed spent the night was not a third
as large as any of the Great Septs seven transepts. Jaime had laid his sword across the Warriors
knees, piled his armor at his feet, and knelt upon the rough stone floor before the altar. When
dawn came his knees were raw and bloody. All knights must bleed, Jaime, Ser Arthur Dayne
had said, when he saw. Blood is the seal of our devotion. With dawn he tapped him on the
shoulder; the pale blade was so sharp that even that light touch cut through Jaimes tunic, so he
bled anew. He never felt it. A boy knelt; a knight rose. The Young Lion, not the Kingslayer.
But that was long ago, and the boy was dead.
He could not have said when the devotions ended. Perhaps he slept, still standing. When the
devout had filed out, the Great Sept grew still once more. The candles were a wall of stars

burning in the darkness, though the air was rank with death. Jaime shifted his grip upon the
golden greatsword. Perhaps he should have let Ser Loras relieve him after all. Cersei would have
hated that. The Knight of Flowers was still half a boy, arrogant and vain, but he had it in him to
be great, to perform deeds worthy of the White Book.
The White Book would be waiting when this vigil was done, his page open in dumb reproach.
Ill hack the bloody book to pieces before Ill fill it full of lies. Yet if he would not lie, what
could he write but truth?
A woman stood before him.
It is raining again, he thought when he saw how wet she was. The water was trickling down her
cloak to puddle round her feet. How did she get here? I never heard her enter. She was dressed
like a tavern wench in a heavy roughspun cloak, badly dyed in mottled browns and fraying at the
hem. A hood concealed her face, but he could see the candles dancing in the green pools of her
eyes, and when she moved he knew her.
Cersei. He spoke slowly, like a man waking from a dream, still wondering where he was.
What hour is it?
The hour of the wolf. His sister lowered her hood, and made a face. The drowned wolf,
perhaps. She smiled for him, so sweetly. Do you remember the first time I came to you like
this? It was some dismal inn off Weasel Alley, and I put on servants garb to get past Fathers
guards.
I remember. It was Eel Alley. She wants something of me. Why are you here, at this hour?
What would you have of me? His last word echoed up and down the sept, mememememe,
fading to a whisper. For a moment he dared to hope that all she wanted was the comfort of his
arms.
Speak softly. Her voice sounded strange... breathless, almost frightened. Jaime, Kevan has
refused me. He will not serve as Hand, he... he knows about us. He said as much.
Refused? That surprised him. How could he know? He will have read what Stannis wrote,
but there is no...
Tyrion knew, she reminded him. Who can say what tales that vile dwarf may have told, or to
whom? Uncle Kevan is the least of it. The High Septon... Tyrion raised him to the crown, when
the fat one died. He may know as well. She moved closer. You must be Tommens Hand. I do
not trust Mace Tyrell. What if he had a hand in Fathers death? He may have been conspiring
with Tyrion. The Imp could be on his way to Highgarden...
Hes not.
Be my Hand, she pleaded, and well rule the Seven Kingdoms together, like a king and his
queen.
You were Roberts queen. And yet you wont be mine.
I would, if I dared. But our son
Tommen is no son of mine, no more than Joffrey was. His voice was hard. You made them
Roberts too.

His sister flinched. You swore that you would always love me. It is not loving to make me
beg.
Jaime could smell the fear on her, even through the rank stench of the corpse. He wanted to take
her in his arms and kiss her, to bury his face in her golden curls and promise her that no one
would ever hurt her... not here, he thought, not here in front of the gods, and Father. No, he
said. I cannot. Will not.
I need you. I need my other half. He could hear the rain pattering against the windows high
above. You are me, I am you. I need you with me. In me. Please, Jaime. Please.
Jaime looked to make certain Lord Tywin was not rising from his bier in wrath, but his father
lay still and cold, rotting. I was made for a battlefield, not a council chamber. And now it may
be that I am unfit even for that.
Cersei wiped her tears away on a ragged brown sleeve. Very well. If it is battlefields you want,
battlefields I shall give you. She jerked her hood up angrily. I was a fool to come. I was a fool
ever to love you. Her footsteps echoed loudly in the quiet, and left damp splotches on the
marble floor.
Dawn caught Jaime almost unawares. As the glass in the dome began to lighten, suddenly there
were rainbows shimmering off the walls and floors and pillars, bathing Lord Tywins corpse in a
haze of many-colored light. The Kings Hand was rotting visibly. His face had taken on a
greenish tinge, and his eyes were deeply sunken, two black pits. Fissures had opened in his
cheeks, and a foul white fluid was seeping through the joints of his splendid gold-and-crimson
armor to pool beneath his body.
The septons were the first to see, when they returned for their dawn devotions. They sang their
songs and prayed their prayers and wrinkled up their noses, and one of the Most Devout grew so
faint he had to be helped from the sept. Shortly after, a flock of novices came swinging censers,
and the air grew so thick with incense that the bier seemed cloaked in smoke. All the rainbows
vanished in that perfumed mist, yet the stench persisted, a sweet rotten smell that made Jaime
want to gag.
When the doors were opened the Tyrells were amongst the first to enter, as befit their rank.
Margaery had brought a great bouquet of golden roses. She placed them ostentatiously at the foot
of Lord Tywins bier but kept one back and held it beneath her nose as she took her seat. So the
girl is as clever as she is pretty. Tommen could do a deal worse for a queen. Others have.
Margaerys ladies followed her example.
Cersei waited until the rest were in their places to make her entrance, with Tommen at her side.
Ser Osmund Kettleblack paced beside them in his white enamel plate and white wool cloak.
... shes been fucking Lancel and Osmund Kettleblack and Moon Boy for all I know...
Jaime had seen Kettleblack naked in the bathhouse, had seen the black hair on his chest, and the
coarser thatch between his legs. He pictured that chest pressed against his sisters, that hair
scratching the soft skin of her breasts. She would not do that. The Imp lied. Spun gold and black
wire tangled, sweaty. Kettleblacks narrow cheeks clenching each time he thrust. Jaime could
hear his sister moan. No. A lie.

Red-eyed and pale, Cersei climbed the steps to kneel above their father, drawing Tommen
down beside her. The boy recoiled at the sight, but his mother seized his wrist before he could
pull away. Pray, she whispered, and Tommen tried. But he was only eight and Lord Tywin was
a horror. One desperate breath of air, then the king began to sob. Stop that! Cersei said.
Tommen turned his head and doubled over, retching. His crown fell off and rolled across the
marble floor. His mother pulled back in disgust, and all at once the king was running for the
doors, as fast as his eight-year-old legs could carry him.
Ser Osmund, relieve me, Jaime said sharply, as Kettleblack turned to chase the crown. He
handed the man the golden sword and went after his king. In the Hall of Lamps he caught him,
beneath the eyes of two dozen startled septas. Im sorry, Tommen wept. I will do better on the
morrow. Mother says a king must show the way, but the smell made me sick.
This will not do. Too many eager ears and watching eyes. Best we go outside, Your Grace.
Jaime led the boy out to where the air was as fresh and clean as Kings Landing ever got.
Twoscore gold cloaks had been posted around the plaza to guard the horses and the litters. He
took the king off to the side, well away from everyone, and sat him down upon the marble steps.
I wasnt scared, the boy insisted. The smell made me sick. Didnt it make you sick? How
could you bear it, Uncle, ser?
I have smelled my own hand rotting, when Vargo Hoat made me wear it for a pendant. A man
can bear most anything, if he must, Jaime told his son. I have smelled a man roasting, as King
Aerys cooked him in his own armor. The world is full of horrors, Tommen. You can fight them,
or laugh at them, or look without seeing... go away inside.
Tommen considered that. I... I used to go away inside sometimes, he confessed, when
Joffy...
Joffrey. Cersei stood over them, the wind whipping her skirts around her legs. Your
brothers name was Joffrey. He would never have shamed me so.
I never meant to. I wasnt frightened, Mother. It was only that your lord father smelled so
bad...
Do you think he smelled any sweeter to me? I have a nose too. She caught his ear and pulled
him to his feet. Lord Tyrell has a nose. Did you see him retching in the holy sept? Did you see
Lady Margaery bawling like a baby?
Jaime got to his feet. Cersei, enough.
Her nostrils flared. Ser? Why are you here? You swore to stand vigil over Father until the
wake was done, as I recall.
It is done. Go look at him.
No. Seven days and seven nights, you said. Surely the Lord Commander remembers how to
count to seven. Take the number of your fingers, then add two.
Others had begun to stream out onto the plaza, fleeing the noxious odors in the sept. Cersei,
keep your voice down, Jaime warned. Lord Tyrell is approaching.
That reached her. The queen drew Tommen to her side. Mace Tyrell bowed before them. His
Grace is not unwell, I hope?

The king was overwhelmed by grief, said Cersei.
As are we all. If there is aught that I can do...
High above, a crow screamed loudly. He was perched on the statue of King Baelor, shitting on
his holy head. There is much and more you can do for Tommen, my lord, Jaime said. Perhaps
you would do Her Grace the honor of supping with her, after the evening services?
Cersei threw him a withering look, but for once she had the sense to bite her tongue.
Sup? Tyrell seemed taken aback. I suppose... of course, we should be honored. My lady wife
and I.
The queen forced a smile and made pleasant noises. But when Tyrell had taken his leave and
Tommen had been sent off with Ser Addam Marbrand, she turned on Jaime angrily. Are you
drunk or dreaming, ser? Pray tell, why am I having supper with that grasping fool and his puerile
wife? A gust of wind stirred her golden hair. I will not name him Hand, if thats what
You need Tyrell, Jaime broke in, but not here. Ask him to capture Storms End for Tommen.
Flatter him, and tell him you need him in the field, to replace Father. Mace fancies himself a
mighty warrior. Either he will deliver Storms End to you, or he will muck it up and look a fool.
Either way, you win.
Storms End? Cersei looked thoughtful. Yes, but... Lord Tyrell has made it tediously plain
that he will not leave Kings Landing till Tommen marries Margaery.
Jaime sighed. Then let them wed. It will be years before Tommen is old enough to
consummate the marriage. And until he does, the union can always be set aside. Give Tyrell his
wedding and send him off to play at war.
A wary smile crept across his sisters face. Even sieges have their dangers, she murmured.
Why, our Lord of Highgarden might even lose his life in such a venture.
There is that risk, conceded Jaime. Especially if his patience runs thin this time, and he
elects to storm the gate.
Cersei gave him a lingering look. You know, she said, for a moment you sounded quite like
Father.

BRIENNE
The gates of Duskendale were closed and barred. Through the predawn gloom the town
walls shimmered palely. On their ramparts, wisps of fog moved like ghostly sentinels. A dozen
wayns and oxcarts had drawn up outside the gates, waiting for the sun to rise. Brienne took her
place behind some turnips. Her calves ached, and it felt good to dismount and stretch her legs.
Before long another wayn came rumbling from the woods. By the time the sky began to lighten,
the queue stretched back a quarter mile.
The farm folk gave her curious glances, but no one spoke to her. It is for me to talk to them,
Brienne told herself, but she had always found it hard to speak with strangers. Even as a girl she
had been shy. Long years of scorn had only made her shyer. I must ask after Sansa. How else
will I find her? She cleared her throat. Goodwife, she said to the woman on the turnip cart,
perhaps you saw my sister on the road? A young maid, three-and-ten and fair of face, with blue
eyes and auburn hair. She may be riding with a drunken knight.
The woman shook her head, but her husband said, Then shes no maid, Ill wager. Does the
poor girl have a name?
Briennes head was empty. I should have made up some name for her. Any name would do, but
none came to her.
No name? Well, the roads are full of nameless girls.
The lichyards even fuller, said his wife.
As dawn broke, guardsmen appeared on the parapets. The farmers climbed onto their wagons
and shook the reins. Brienne mounted as well and took a glance behind her. Most of the queue
waiting to enter Duskendale were farm folk with loads of fruits and vegetables to sell. A pair of
wealthy townsmen sat on well-bred palfreys a dozen places behind her, and farther back she
spied a skinny boy on a piebald rounsey. There was no sign of the two knights, nor Ser Shadrich
the Mad Mouse.
The guards were waving through the wayns with scarce a look, but when Brienne reached the
gate she gave them pause. Halt, you! the captain cried. A pair of men in chainmail hauberks
crossed their spears to bar her way. State your purpose here.
I seek the Lord of Duskendale, or his maester.
The captains eyes lingered on her shield. The black bat of Lothston. Those are arms of ill
repute.
They are not mine. I mean to have the shield repainted.
Aye? The captain rubbed his stubbled chin. My sister does such work, as it happens. Youll
find her at the house with the painted doors, across from the Seven Swords. He gestured to the
guards. Let her pass, lads. Its a wench.
The gatehouse opened on a market square, where those who had entered before her were
unloading to hawk their turnips, yellow onions, and sacks of barleycorn. Others were selling
arms and armor, and very cheaply to judge from the prices they shouted out as she rode by. The
looters come with the carrion crows after every battle. Brienne walked her horse past mail shirts

still caked with brown blood, dinted helms, notched longswords. There was clothing to be had as
well: leather boots, fur cloaks, stained surcoats with suspicious rents. She knew many of the
badges. The mailed fist, the moose, the white sun, the double-bladed axe, all those were northern
sigils. Tarly men had perished here as well, though, and many from the stormlands. She saw red
and green apples, a shield that bore the three thunderbolts of Leygood, horse trappings patterned
with the ants of Ambrose. Lord Tarlys own striding huntsman appeared on many a badge and
brooch and doublet. Friend or foe, the crows care not.
There were pine and linden shields to be had for pennies, but Brienne rode past them. She
meant to keep the heavy oaken shield Jaime had given her, the one hed borne himself from
Harrenhal to Kings Landing. A pine shield had its advantages. It was lighter, and therefore
easier to bear, and the soft wood was more like to trap a foemans axe or sword. But oak gave
more protection, if you were strong enough to bear its weight.
Duskendale was built around its harbor. North of town the chalk cliffs rose; to the south a rocky
headland shielded the ships at anchor from storms coming up the narrow sea. The castle
overlooked the port, its square keep and big drum towers visible from every part of town. In the
crowded cobbled streets, it was easier to walk than ride, so Brienne put her mare up in a stable
and continued on afoot, with her shield slung across her back and her bedroll tucked up beneath
one arm.
The captains sister was not hard to find. The Seven Swords was the largest inn in town, a four-
story structure that towered over its neighbors, and the double doors on the house across the way
were painted gorgeously. They showed a castle in an autumn wood, the trees done up in shades
of gold and russet. Ivy crawled up the trunks of ancient oaks, and even the acorns had been done
with loving care. When Brienne peered more closely, she saw creatures in the foliage: a sly red
fox, two sparrows on a branch, and behind those leaves the shadow of a boar.
Your door is very pretty, she told the dark-haired woman who answered when she knocked.
What castle is that meant to be?
All castles, said the captains sister. The only one I know is the Dun Fort by the harbor. I
made tother in my head, what a castle ought to look like. I never seen a dragon neither, nor a
griffin, nor a unicorn. She had a cheerful manner, but when Brienne showed her the shield her
face went dark. My old ma used to say that giant bats flew out from Harrenhal on moonless
nights, to carry bad children to Mad Danelle for her cookpots. Sometimes Id hear them
scrabbling at the shutters. She sucked her teeth a moment, thoughtful. What goes in its place?
The arms of Tarth were quartered rose and azure, and bore a yellow sun and crescent moon. But
so long as men believed her to be a murderess, Brienne dare not carry them. Your door
reminded me of an old shield I once saw in my fathers armory. She described the arms as best
she could recall them.
The woman nodded. I can paint it straightaway, but the paint will need to dry. Take a room at
the Seven Swords, if it please you. Ill bring the shield to you by morning.
Brienne had not meant to overnight in Duskendale, but it might be for the best. She did not
know if the lord of the castle was in residence, or whether he would consent to see her. She

thanked the painter and crossed the cobblestones to the inn. Above its door, seven wooden
swords swung beneath an iron spike. The whitewash that covered them was cracked and peeling,
but Brienne knew their meaning. They stood for the seven sons of Darklyn who had worn the
white cloaks of the Kingsguard. No other house in all the realm could claim as many. They were
the glory of their House. And now they are a sign above an inn. She pushed into the common
room and asked the innkeep for a room and a bath.
He put her on the second floor, and a woman with a liver-colored birthmark on her face brought
up a wooden tub, and then the water, pail by pail. Do any Darklyns remain in Duskendale?
Brienne asked as she climbed into the tub.
Well, theres Darkes, Im one myself. My husband says I was Darke before we wed, and
darker afterward. She laughed. Cant throw a stone in Duskendale without you hit some Darke
or Darkwood or Dargood, but the lordly Darklyns are all gone. Lord Denys was the last o them,
the sweet young fool. Did you know the Darklyns were kings in Duskendale before the Andals
come? Youd never know tlook at me, but I got me royal blood. Can you see it? Your Grace,
another cup of ale, I ought to make them say. Your Grace, the chamber pot needs emptying,
and fetch in some fresh faggots, Your Bloody Grace, the fires going out. She laughed again
and shook the last drops from the pail. Well, there you are. Is that water hot enough for you?
It will serve. The water was lukewarm.
Id bring up more, but itd just slop over. A girl the size o you, you fill a tub.
Only a cramped small tub like this one. At Harrenhal the tubs had been huge, and made of
stone. The bathhouse had been thick with the steam rising off the water, and Jaime had come
walking through that mist naked as his name day, looking half a corpse and half a god. He
climbed into the tub with me, she remembered, blushing. She seized a chunk of hard lye soap
and scrubbed under her arms, trying to call up Renlys face again.
By the time the water had gone cold, Brienne was as clean as she was like to get. She put on the
same clothes she had taken off and girded her swordbelt tight around her hips, but her mail and
helm she left behind, so as not to seem so threatening at the Dun Fort. It felt good to stretch her
legs. The guards at the castle gates wore leather jacks with a badge that showed crossed
warhammers upon a white saltire. I would speak with your lord, Brienne told them.
One laughed. Best shout out loud, then.
Lord Rykker rode to Maidenpool with Randyll Tarly, the other said. He left Ser Rufus Leek
as castellan, to look after Lady Rykker and the young ones.
It was to Leek that they escorted her. Ser Rufus was a short, stout greybeard whose left leg
ended in a stump. You will forgive me if I do not rise, he said. Brienne offered him her letter,
but Leek could not read, so he sent her to the maester, a bald man with a freckled scalp and a
stiff red mustache.
When he heard the name Hollard, the maester frowned with irritation. How often must I sing
this song? Her face must have given her away. Did you think you were the first to come
seeking after Dontos? More like the twenty-first. The gold cloaks were here within days of the
kings murder, with Lord Tywins warrant. And what do you have, pray?

Brienne showed him the letter, with Tommens seal and childish signature. The maester
hmmmmed and hrrrred, picked at the wax, and finally gave it back. It seems in order. He
climbed onto a stool and gestured Brienne to another. I never knew Ser Dontos. He was a boy
when he left Duskendale. The Hollards were a noble House once, tis true. You know their arms?
Barry red and pink, with three golden crowns upon a blue chief. The Darklyns were petty kings
during the Age of Heroes, and three took Hollard wives. Later their little realm was swallowed
up by larger kingdoms, yet the Darklyns endured and the Hollards served them... aye, even in
defiance. You know of that?
A little. Her own maester used to say that it was the Defiance of Duskendale that had driven
King Aerys mad.
In Duskendale they love Lord Denys still, despite the woe he brought them. Tis Lady Serala
that they blame, his Myrish wife. The Lace Serpent, she is called. If Lord Darklyn had only wed
a Staunton or a Stokeworth... well, you know how smallfolk will go on. The Lace Serpent filled
her husbands ear with Myrish poison, they say, until Lord Denys rose against his king and took
him captive. In the taking, his master-at-arms Ser Symon Hollard cut down Ser Gwayne Gaunt
of the Kingsguard. For half a year Aerys was held within these very walls, whilst the Kings
Hand sat outside Duskendale with a mighty host. Lord Tywin had sufficient strength to storm the
town any time he wished, but Lord Denys sent word that at the first sign of assault hed kill the
king.
Brienne remembered what came next. The king was rescued, she said. Barristan the Bold
brought him out.
He did, the maester said. Once Lord Denys lost his hostage, he opened his gates and ended
his defiance rather than let Lord Tywin take the town. He bent the knee and begged for mercy,
but the king was not of a forgiving mind. Lord Denys lost his head, as did his brothers and his
sister, uncles, cousins, all the lordly Darklyns. The Lace Serpent was burned alive, poor woman,
though her tongue was torn out first, and her female parts, with which it was said that she had
enslaved her lord. Half of Duskendale will still tell you that Aerys was too kind to her.
And the Hollards?
Attainted and destroyed, said the maester. I was forging my chain at the Citadel when this
happened, but I have read the accounts of their trials and punishments. Ser Jon Hollard the
Steward was wed to Lord Denyss sister and died with his wife, as did their young son, who was
half-Darklyn. Robin Hollard was a squire, and when the king was seized he danced around him
and pulled his beard. He died upon the rack. Ser Symon Hollard was slain by Ser Barristan
during the kings escape. The Hollard lands were taken, their castle torn down, their villages put
to the torch. As with the Darklyns, House Hollard was extinguished.
Save for Dontos.
True enough. Young Dontos was the son of Ser Steffon Hollard, the twin brother of Ser
Symon, who had died of a fever some years before and had no part in the Defiance. Aerys would
have taken the boys head off nonetheless, but Ser Barristan asked that his life be spared. The
king could not refuse the man whod saved him, so Dontos was taken to Kings Landing as a

squire. To my knowledge he never returned to Duskendale, and why should he? He held no lands
here, had neither kin nor castle. If Dontos and this northern girl helped murder our sweet king, it
seems to me that they would want to put as many leagues as they could betwixt themselves and
justice. Look for them in Oldtown, if you must, or across the narrow sea. Look for them in
Dorne, or on the Wall. Look elsewhere. He rose. I hear my ravens calling. You will forgive me
if I bid you good morrow.
The walk back to the inn seemed longer than the walk to the Dun Fort, though perhaps that was
only her mood. She would not find Sansa Stark in Duskendale, that seemed plain. If Ser Dontos
had taken her to Oldtown or across the narrow sea, as the maester seemed to think, Briennes
quest was hopeless. What was there for her in Oldtown? she asked herself. The maester never
knew her, no more than he knew Hollard. She would not have gone to strangers.
In Kings Landing, Brienne had found one of Sansas former maids doing washing in a brothel.
I served with Lord Renly before mlady Sansa, and both turned traitor, the woman Brella
complained bitterly. No lord will touch me now, so I have to wash for whores. But when
Brienne asked about Sansa, she said, Ill tell you what I told Lord Tywin. That girl was always
praying. Shed go to sept and light her candles like a proper lady, but near every night she went
off to the godswood. Shes gone back north, she has. Thats where her gods are.
The north was huge, though, and Brienne had no notion which of her fathers bannermen Sansa
might have been most inclined to trust. Or would she seek her own blood instead? Though all of
her siblings had been slain, Brienne knew that Sansa still had an uncle and a bastard half brother
on the Wall, serving in the Nights Watch. Another uncle, Edmure Tully, was a captive at the
Twins, but his uncle Ser Brynden still held Riverrun. And Lady Catelyns younger sister ruled
the Vale. Blood calls to blood. Sansa might well have run to one of them. Which one, though?
The Wall was too far, surely, and a bleak and bitter place besides. And to reach Riverrun the
girl would need to cross the war-torn riverlands and pass through the Lannister siege lines. The
Eyrie would be simpler, and Lady Lysa would surely welcome her sisters daughter...
Ahead, the alley bent. Somehow Brienne had taken a wrong turn. She found herself in a dead
end, a small muddy yard where three pigs were rooting round a low stone well. One squealed at
the sight of her, and an old woman drawing water looked her up and down suspiciously. What
would you be wanting?
I was looking for the Seven Swords.
Back the way you come. Left at the sept.
I thank you. Brienne turned to retrace her steps, and walked headfirst into someone hurrying
round the bend. The collision knocked him off his feet, and he landed on his arse in the mud.
Pardons, she murmured. He was only a boy; a scrawny lad with straight, thin hair and a sty
beneath one eye. Are you hurt? She offered a hand to help him up, but the boy squirmed back
away from her on heels and elbows. He could not have been more than ten or twelve, though he
wore a chainmail byrnie and had a longsword in a leather sheath slung across his back. Do I
know you? Brienne asked. His face seemed vaguely familiar, though she could not think from
where.

No. You dont. You never... He scrambled to his feet. F-f-forgive me. My lady. I wasnt
looking. I mean, I was, but down. I was looking down. At my feet. The boy took to his heels,
plunging headlong back the way hed come.
Something about him roused all of Briennes suspicions, but she was not about to chase him
through the streets of Duskendale. Outside the gates this morning, that was where I saw him, she
realized. He was riding a piebald rounsey. And it seemed as if she had seen him somewhere else
as well, but where?
By the time Brienne found the Seven Swords again, the common room was crowded. Four
septas sat closest to the fire, in robes stained and dusty from the road. Elsewhere locals filled the
benches, sopping up bowls of hot crab stew with chunks of bread. The smell made her stomach
rumble, but she saw no empty seats. Then a voice behind her said, Mlady, here, have my
place. Not until he hopped off the bench did Brienne realize that the speaker was a dwarf. The
little man was not quite five feet tall. His nose was veined and bulbous, his teeth red from
sourleaf, and he was dressed in the brown roughspun robes of a holy brother, with the iron
hammer of the Smith dangling down about his thick neck.
Keep your seat, she said. I can stand as well as you.
Aye, but my head is not so apt to knock upon the ceiling. The dwarfs speech was coarse but
courteous. Brienne could see the crown of his scalp where he had shaved it. Many holy brothers
wore such tonsures. Septa Roelle once told her that it was meant to show that they had nothing to
hide from the Father. Cant the Father see through hair? Brienne had asked. A stupid thing to
say. She had been a slow child; Septa Roelle often told her so. She felt near as stupid now, so she
took the little mans place at the end of the bench, signaled for stew, and turned to thank the
dwarf. Do you serve some holy house in Duskendale, brother?
Twas nearer Maidenpool, mlady, but the wolves burned us out, the man replied, gnawing on
a heel of bread. We rebuilt as best we could, until some sellswords come. I could not say whose
men they were, but they took our pigs and killed the brothers. I squeezed inside a hollow log and
hid, but tothers were too big. It took me a long time to bury them all, but the Smith, he gave me
strength. When that was done I dug up a few coins the elder brother had hid by and set off by
myself.
I met some other brothers going to Kings Landing.
Aye, theres hundreds on the roads. Not only brothers. Septons too, and smallfolk. Sparrows
all. Might be Im a sparrow too. The Smith, he made me small enough. He chuckled. And
whats your sad tale, mlady?
I am looking for my sister. Shes highborn, only three-and-ten, a pretty maid with blue eyes
and auburn hair. You may have seen her traveling with a man. A knight, perhaps a fool. Theres
gold for the man who helps me find her.
Gold? The brother gave her a red smile. A bowl of that crab stew would be enough reward
for me, but I fear I cannot help you. Fools Ive met, and plenty, but not so many pretty maids.
He cocked his head and thought a moment. There was a fool at Maidenpool, now that I think of
it. He was clad in rags and dirt, as near as I could tell, but under the dirt was motley.

Did Dontos Hollard wear motley? No one had told Brienne that he did... but no one had ever
said he didnt, either. Why would the man be in rags, though? Had some misfortune overtaken
him and Sansa after they fled Kings Landing? That could well be, with the roads so dangerous.
It might not have been him at all. Did this fool have a red nose, full of broken veins?
I could not swear to that. I confess, I paid him little heed. Id gone to Maidenpool after burying
my brothers, thinking that I might find a ship to take me to Kings Landing. I first glimpsed the
fool down by the docks. He had a furtive air to him and took care to avoid Lord Tarlys soldiers.
Later, I encountered him again, at the Stinking Goose.
The Stinking Goose? she said, uncertain.
An unsavory place, the dwarf admitted. Lord Tarlys men patrol the port at Maidenpool, but
the Goose is always full of sailors, and sailors have been known to smuggle men aboard their
ships, if the price is right. This fool was seeking passage for three across the narrow sea. I oft
saw him there, talking with oarsmen off the galleys. Sometimes he would sing a funny song.
Seeking passage for three? Not two?
Three, mlady. That Id swear to, by the Seven. Three, she thought. Sansa, Ser Dontos... but
who would be the third? The Imp? Did the fool find his ship?
That I could not say, the dwarf told her, but one night some of Lord Tarlys soldiers visited
the Goose looking for him, and a few days later I heard another man boasting that hed fooled a
fool and had the gold to prove it. He was drunk, and buying ale for everyone.
Fooled a fool, she said. What did he mean by that?
I could not tell you. His name was Nimble Dick, though, that I do recall. The dwarf spread
his hands. I fear thats all that I can offer you, aside from a small mans prayers.
True to her word, Brienne bought him his bowl of hot crab stew... and some hot fresh bread and
a cup of wine as well. As he ate it, standing by her side, she mulled what he had told her. Could
the Imp have joined them? If Tyrion Lannister were behind Sansas disappearance, and not
Dontos Hollard, it stood to reason that they would need to flee across the narrow sea.
When the little man was done with his bowl of stew, he finished what was left of hers as well.
You should eat more, he said. A woman big as you needs t keep her strength up. It is not far
to Maidenpool, but the road is perilous these days.
I know. It was on that very road that Ser Cleos Frey had died, and she and Ser Jaime had been
taken by the Bloody Mummers. Jaime tried to kill me, she remembered, though he was gaunt and
weak, and his wrists were chained. It had been a close thing, even so, but that was before Zollo
hacked his hand off. Zollo and Rorge and Shagwell would have raped her half a hundred times if
Ser Jaime had not told them she was worth her weight in sapphires.
Mlady? You look sad. Are you thinking of your sister? The dwarf patted her on the hand.
The Crone will light your way to her, never fear. The Maiden will keep her safe.
I pray that you are right.
I am. He bowed. But now I must be on my way. Ive a long way yet to go to reach Kings
Landing.
Do you have a horse? A mule?

Two mules. The little man laughed. There they are, at the bottom of my legs. They get me
where I want t go. He bowed, and waddled to the door, swaying with each step.
She remained at the table after he had gone, lingering over a cup of watered wine. Brienne did
not oft drink wine, but once in a great while she found it helped to settle her belly. And where do
I want to go? she asked herself. To Maidenpool, to look for a man named Nimble Dick in a place
called the Stinking Goose?
When last she had seen Maidenpool, the town had been a desolation, its lord shut up inside his
castle, its smallfolk dead or fled or hiding. She remembered burned houses and empty streets,
smashed and broken gates. Feral dogs had skulked along behind their horses, whilst swollen
corpses floated like huge pale water lilies atop the spring-fed pool that gave the town its name.
Jaime sang Six Maids in a Pool, and laughed when I begged him to be quiet. And Randyll
Tarly was at Maidenpool as well, another reason for her to avoid the town. She might do better to
take ship for Gulltown or White Harbor. I could do both, though. Pay a call on the Stinking
Goose and talk to this Nimble Dick, then find a ship at Maidenpool to take me farther north.
The common room had begun to empty. Brienne tore a chunk of bread in half, listening to the
talk at the other tables. Most of it concerned the death of Lord Tywin Lannister. Murdered by
his own son, they say, a local man was saying, a cobbler by the look of him, that vile little
dwarf.
And the king is just a boy, said the oldest of the four septas. Who is to rule us till he comes
of age?
Lord Tywins brother, said a guardsman. Or that Lord Tyrell, might be. Or the Kingslayer.
Not him, declared the innkeep. Not that oathbreaker. He spat into the fire. Brienne let the
bread fall from her hands and wiped the crumbs off on her breeches. Shed heard enough.
That night she dreamed herself in Renlys tent again. All the candles were guttering out, and the
cold was thick around her. Something was moving through green darkness, something foul and
horrible was hurtling toward her king. She wanted to protect him, but her limbs felt stiff and
frozen, and it took more strength than she had just to lift her hand. And when the shadow sword
sliced through the green steel gorget and the blood began to flow, she saw that the dying king
was not Renly after all but Jaime Lannister, and she had failed him.
The captains sister found her in the common room, drinking a cup of milk and honey with
three raw eggs mixed in. You did beautifully, she said, when the woman showed her the
freshly painted shield. It was more a picture than a proper coat of arms, and the sight of it took
her back through the long years, to the cool dark of her fathers armory. She remembered how
shed run her fingertips across the cracked and fading paint, over the green leaves of the tree, and
along the path of the falling star.
Brienne paid the captains sister half again the sum they had agreed, and slung the shield across
one shoulder when she left the inn, after buying some hardbread, cheese, and flour from the
cook. She left the town by the north gate, riding slowly through the fields and farms where the
worst of the fighting had been, when the wolves came down on Duskendale.

Lord Randyll Tarly had commanded Joffreys army, made up of westermen and stormlanders
and knights from the Reach. Those men of his who had died here had been carried back inside
the walls, to rest in heroes tombs beneath the septs of Duskendale. The northern dead, far more
numerous, were buried in a common grave beside the sea. Above the cairn that marked their
resting place, the victors had raised a rough-hewn wooden marker. HERE LIE THE WOLVES
was all it said. Brienne stopped beside it and said a silent prayer for them, and for Catelyn Stark
and her son Robb and all the men whod died with them as well.
She remembered the night that Lady Catelyn had learned her sons were dead, the two young
boys shed left at Winterfell to keep them safe. Brienne had known that something was terribly
amiss. She had asked her if there had been news of her sons. I have no sons but Robb, Lady
Catelyn had replied. She had sounded as if a knife were twisting her belly. Brienne had reached
across the table to give her comfort, but she stopped before her fingers brushed the older
womans, for fear that she would flinch away. Lady Catelyn had turned over her hands, to show
Brienne the scars on her palms and fingers where a knife once bit deep into her flesh. Then she
had begun to talk about her daughters. Sansa was a little lady, she had said, always courteous
and eager to please. She loved tales of knightly valor. She will grow into a woman far more
beautiful than I, you can see that. I would often brush her hair myself. She had auburn hair, thick
and soft... the red in it would shine like copper in the light of the torches.
She had spoken of Arya too, her younger daughter, but Arya was lost, most likely dead by now.
Sansa, though... I will find her, my lady, Brienne swore to Lady Catelyns restless shade. I will
never stop looking. I will give up my life if need be, give up my honor, give up all my dreams,
but I will find her.
Beyond the battleground the road ran beside the shore, between the surging grey-green sea and
a line of low limestone hills. Brienne was not the only traveler on the road. There were fishing
villages up along the coast for many leagues, and the fisherfolk used this road to take their fish to
market. She rode past a fishwife and her daughters, walking home with empty baskets on their
shoulders. In her armor, they took her for a knight until they saw her face. Then the girls
whispered to one another and gave her looks. Have you seen a maid of three-and-ten along the
road? she asked them. A highborn maid with blue eyes and auburn hair? Ser Shadrich had
made her wary, but she had to keep on trying. She may have been traveling with a fool. But
they only shook their heads and giggled at her behind their hands.
In the first village she came to, barefoot boys ran along beside her horse. She had donned her
helm, stung by the giggles of the fisherfolk, so they took her for a man. One boy offered to sell
her clams, one offered crabs, and one offered her his sister.
Brienne bought three crabs from the second boy. By the time she left the village it had begun to
rain, and the wind was rising. Storm coming, she thought, glancing out to sea. The raindrops
pinged against the steel of her helm, making her ears ring as she rode, but it was better than
being out there in a boat.
An hour farther north, the road divided at a pile of tumbled stones that marked the ruins of a
small castle. The right-hand fork followed the coast, meandering up along the shore toward

Crackclaw Point, a dismal land of bogs and pine barrens; the left-hand ran through hills and
fields and woods to Maidenpool. The rain was falling more heavily by then. Brienne dismounted
and led her mare off the road to take shelter amongst the ruins. The course of the castle walls
could still be discerned amongst the brambles, weeds, and wild elms, but the stones that had
made them up were strewn like a childs blocks between the roads. Part of the main keep still
stood, however. Its triple towers were grey granite, like the broken walls, but their merlons were
yellow sandstone. Three crowns, she realized, as she gazed at them through the rain. Three
golden crowns. This had been a Hollard castle. Ser Dontos had been born here, like as not.
She led her mare through the rubble to the keeps main entrance. Of the door only rusted iron
hinges remained, but the roof was still sound, and it was dry within. Brienne tied her mare to a
wall sconce, took off her helm, and shook out her hair. She was searching for some dry wood to
light a fire when she heard the sound of another horse, coming closer. Some instinct made her
step back into the shadows, where she could not be seen from the road. This was the very road
where she and Ser Jaime had been captured. She did not intend to suffer that again.
The rider was a small man. The Mad Mouse, she thought, at her first sight of him. Somehow
hes followed me. Her hand went to her sword hilt, and she found herself wondering if Ser
Shadrich would think her easy prey just because she was a woman. Lord Grandisons castellan
had once made that error. Humfrey Wagstaff was his name; a proud old man of five-and-sixty,
with a nose like a hawk and a spotted head. The day they were betrothed, he warned Brienne that
he would expect her to be a proper woman once theyd wed. I will not have my lady wife
cavorting about in mans mail. On this you shall obey me, lest I be forced to chastise you.
She was sixteen and no stranger to a sword, but still shy despite her prowess in the yard. Yet
somehow she had found the courage to tell Ser Humfrey that she would accept chastisement only
from a man who could outfight her. The old knight purpled, but agreed to don his own armor to
teach her a womans proper place. They fought with blunted tourney weapons, so Briennes
mace had no spikes. She broke Ser Humfreys collarbone, two ribs, and their betrothal. He was
her third prospective husband, and her last. Her father did not insist again.
If it was Ser Shadrich dogging her heels, she might well have a fight on her hands. She did not
intend to partner with the man or let him follow her to Sansa. He had the sort of easy arrogance
that comes with skill at arms, she thought, but he was small. Ill have the reach on him, and I
should be stronger too.
Brienne was as strong as most knights, and her old master-at-arms used to say that she was
quicker than any woman her size had any right to be. The gods had given her stamina too, which
Ser Goodwin deemed a noble gift. Fighting with sword and shield was a wearisome business,
and victory oft went to the man with most endurance. Ser Goodwin had taught her to fight
cautiously, to conserve her strength while letting her foes spend theirs in furious attacks. Men
will always underestimate you, he said, and their pride will make them want to vanquish you
quickly, lest it be said that a woman tried them sorely. She had learned the truth of that once she
went into the world. Even Jaime Lannister had come at her that way, in the woods by
Maidenpool. If the gods were good, the Mad Mouse would make the same mistake. He may be a

seasoned knight, she thought, but he is no Jaime Lannister. She slid her sword out of its
scabbard.
But it was not Ser Shadrichs chestnut courser that drew up where the road forked, but a
broken-down old piebald rounsey with a skinny boy upon his back. When Brienne saw the horse
she drew back in confusion. Only some boy, she thought, until she glimpsed the face beneath his
hood. The boy in Duskendale, the one who bumped into me. Its him.
The boy never gave the ruined castle a glance, but looked down one road, then the other. After
a moments hesitation, he turned the rounsey toward the hills and plodded on. Brienne watched
him vanish through the falling rain, and suddenly it came to her that she had seen this same boy
in Rosby. He is stalking me, she realized, but thats a game that two can play. She untied her
mare, climbed back into the saddle, and went after him.
The boy was staring at the ground as he rode, watching the ruts in the road fill up with water.
The rain muffled the sound of her approach, and no doubt his hood played a part as well. He
never looked back once, until Brienne trotted up behind him and gave the rounsey a whack
across the rump with the flat of her longsword.
The horse reared, and the skinny boy went flying, his cloak flapping like a pair of wings. He
landed in the mud and came up with dirt and dead brown grass between his teeth to find Brienne
standing over him. It was the same boy, beyond a doubt. She recognized the sty. Who are you?
she demanded.
The boys mouth worked soundlessly. His eyes were big as eggs. Puh, was all he could
manage. Puh. His chainmail byrnie made a rattling sound when he shivered. Puh. Puh.
Please? said Brienne. Are you saying please? She laid the point of her sword on the apple
of his throat. Please tell me who you are, and why youre following me.
Not puh-puh-please. He stuck a finger in his mouth, and flicked away a clump of mud,
spitting. Puh-puh-Pod. My name. Puh-puh-Podrick. Puh-Payne.
Brienne lowered her sword. She felt a rush of sympathy for the boy. She remembered a day at
Evenfall, and a young knight with a rose in his hand. He brought the rose to give to me. Or so her
septa told her. All she had to do was welcome him to her fathers castle. He was eighteen, with
long red hair that tumbled to his shoulders. She was twelve, tightly laced into a stiff new gown,
its bodice bright with garnets. The two of them were of a height, but she could not look him in
the eye, nor say the simple words her septa had taught her. Ser Ronnet. I welcome you to my lord
fathers hall. It is good to look upon your face at last.
Why are you following me? she demanded of the boy. Were you told to spy upon me? Do
you belong to Varys, or the queen?
No. Not neither. No one.
Brienne put his age at ten, but she was terrible at judging how old a child was. She always
thought they were younger than they were, perhaps because she had always been big for her age.
Freakish big, Septa Roelle used to say, and mannish. This road is too dangerous for a boy
alone.
Not for a squire. Im his squire. The Hands squire.

Lord Tywin? Brienne sheathed her blade.
No. Not that Hand. The one before. His son. I fought with him in the battle. I shouted
Halfman! Halfman!
The Imps squire. Brienne had not even known he had one. Tyrion Lannister was no knight. He
might have been expected to have a serving boy or two to attend him, she supposed, a page and a
cupbearer, someone to help dress him. But a squire? Why are you stalking after me? she said.
What do you want?
To find her. The boy got to his feet. His lady. Youre looking for her. Brella told me. Shes
his wife. Not Brella, Lady Sansa. So I thought, if you found her... His face twisted in sudden
anguish. Im his squire, he repeated, as the rain ran down his face, but he left me.

SANSA
Once, when she was just a little girl, a wandering singer had stayed with them at
Winterfell for half a year. An old man he was, with white hair and windburnt cheeks, but he sang
of knights and quests and ladies fair, and Sansa had cried bitter tears when he left them, and
begged her father not to let him go. The man has played us every song he knows thrice over,
Lord Eddard told her gently. I cannot keep him here against his will. You need not weep,
though. I promise you, other singers will come.
They hadnt, though, not for a year or more. Sansa had prayed to the Seven in their sept and old
gods of the heart tree, asking them to bring the old man back, or better still to send another
singer, young and handsome. But the gods never answered, and the halls of Winterfell stayed
silent.
But that was when she was a little girl, and foolish. She was a maiden now, three-and-ten and
flowered. All her nights were full of song, and by day she prayed for silence.
If the Eyrie had been made like other castles, only rats and gaolers would have heard the dead
man singing. Dungeon walls were thick enough to swallow songs and screams alike. But the sky
cells had a wall of empty air, so every chord the dead man played flew free to echo off the stony
shoulders of the Giants Lance. And the songs he chose... He sang of the Dance of the Dragons,
of fair Jonquil and her fool, of Jenny of Oldstones and the Prince of Dragonflies. He sang of
betrayals, and murders most foul, of hanged men and bloody vengeance. He sang of grief and
sadness.
No matter where she went in the castle, Sansa could not escape the music. It floated up the
winding tower steps, found her naked in her bath, supped with her at dusk, and stole into her
bedchamber even when she latched the shutters tight. It came in on the cold thin air, and like the
air, it chilled her. Though it had not snowed upon the Eyrie since the day that Lady Lysa fell, the
nights had all been bitter cold.
The singers voice was strong and sweet. Sansa thought he sounded better than he ever had
before, his voice richer somehow, full of pain and fear and longing. She did not understand why
the gods would have given such a voice to such a wicked man. He would have taken me by force
on the Fingers if Petyr had not set Ser Lothor to watch over me, she had to remind herself. And
he played to drown out my cries when Aunt Lysa tried to kill me.
That did not make the songs any easier to hear. Please, she begged Lord Petyr, cant you
make him stop?
I gave the man my word, sweetling. Petyr Baelish, Lord of Harrenhal, Lord Paramount of the
Trident, and Lord Protector of the Eyrie and the Vale of Arryn, looked up from the letter he was
writing. He had written a hundred letters since Lady Lysas fall. Sansa had seen the ravens
coming and going from the rookery. Id sooner suffer his singing than listen to his sobbing.
It is better that he sings, yes, but... Must he play all night, my lord? Lord Robert cannot sleep.
He cries...

... for his mother. That cannot be helped, the wench is dead. Petyr shrugged. It will not be
much longer. Lord Nestor is making his ascent on the morrow.
Sansa had met Lord Nestor Royce once before, after Petyrs wedding to her aunt. Royce was
the Keeper of the Gates of the Moon, the great castle that stood at the base of the mountain and
guarded the steps up to the Eyrie. The wedding party had guested with him overnight before
beginning their ascent. Lord Nestor had scarce looked at her twice, but the prospect of him
coming here terrified her. He was High Steward of the Vale as well, Jon Arryns trusted liege
man, and Lady Lysas. He wont... you wont let Lord Nestor see Marillion, will you?
Her horror must have shown on her face, since Petyr put down his quill. On the contrary. I
shall insist on it. He beckoned her to take the seat beside him. We have come to an agreement,
Marillion and I. Mord can be most persuasive. And if our singer disappoints us and sings a song
we do not care to hear, why, you and I need only say he lies. Whom do you imagine Lord Nestor
will believe?
Us? Sansa wished she could be certain.
Of course. Our lies will profit him.
The solar was warm, the fire crackling merrily, but Sansa shivered all the same. Yes, but... but
what if...
What if Lord Nestor values honor more than profit? Petyr put his arm around her. What if it
is truth he wants, and justice for his murdered lady? He smiled. I know Lord Nestor, sweetling.
Do you imagine Id ever let him harm my daughter?
I am not your daughter, she thought. I am Sansa Stark, Lord Eddards daughter and Lady
Catelyns, the blood of Winterfell. She did not say it, though. If not for Petyr Baelish it would
have been Sansa who went spinning through a cold blue sky to stony death six hundred feet
below, instead of Lysa Arryn. He is so bold. Sansa wished she had his courage. She wanted to
crawl back into bed and hide beneath her blanket, to sleep and sleep. She had not slept a whole
night through since Lysa Arryns death. Couldnt you tell Lord Nestor that I am... indisposed,
or...
He will want to hear your account of Lysas death.
My lord, if... if Marillion tells what truly...
If he lies, you mean?
Lies? Yes... if he lies, if it is my tale against his, and Lord Nestor looks in my eyes and sees
how scared I am...
A touch of fear will not be out of place, Alayne. Youve seen a fearful thing. Nestor will be
moved. Petyr studied her eyes, as if seeing them for the first time. You have your mothers
eyes. Honest eyes, and innocent. Blue as a sunlit sea. When you are a little older, many a man
will drown in those eyes.
Sansa did not know what to say to that.
All you need do is tell Lord Nestor the same tale that you told Lord Robert, Petyr went on.
Robert is only a sick little boy, she thought, Lord Nestor is a man grown, stern and suspicious.
Robert was not strong and had to be protected, even from the truth. Some lies are love, Petyr

had assured her. She reminded him of that. When we lied to Lord Robert, that was just to spare
him, she said.
And this lie may spare us. Else you and I must leave the Eyrie by the same door Lysa used.
Petyr picked up his quill again. We shall serve him lies and Arbor gold, and hell drink them
down and ask for more, I promise you.
He is serving me lies as well, Sansa realized. They were comforting lies, though, and she
thought them kindly meant. A lie is not so bad if it is kindly meant. If only she believed them...
The things her aunt had said just before she fell still troubled Sansa greatly. Ravings, Petyr
called them. My wife was mad, you saw that for yourself. And so she had. All I did was build
a snow castle, and she meant to push me out the Moon Door. Petyr saved me. He loved my
mother well, and...
And her? How could she doubt it? He had saved her.
He saved Alayne, his daughter, a voice within her whispered. But she was Sansa too... and
sometimes it seemed to her that the Lord Protector was two people as well. He was Petyr, her
protector, warm and funny and gentle... but he was also Littlefinger, the lord shed known at
Kings Landing, smiling slyly and stroking his beard as he whispered in Queen Cerseis ear. And
Littlefinger was no friend of hers. When Joff had her beaten, the Imp defended her, not
Littlefinger. When the mob sought to rape her, the Hound carried her to safety, not Littlefinger.
When the Lannisters wed her to Tyrion against her will, Ser Garlan the Gallant gave her comfort,
not Littlefinger. Littlefinger never lifted so much as his little finger for her.
Except to get me out. He did that for me. I thought it was Ser Dontos, my poor old drunken
Florian, but it was Petyr all the while. Littlefinger was only a mask he had to wear. Only
sometimes Sansa found it hard to tell where the man ended and the mask began. Littlefinger and
Lord Petyr looked so very much alike. She would have fled them both, perhaps, but there was
nowhere for her to go. Winterfell was burned and desolate, Bran and Rickon dead and cold.
Robb had been betrayed and murdered at the Twins, along with their lady mother. Tyrion had
been put to death for killing Joffrey, and if she ever returned to Kings Landing the queen would
have her head as well. The aunt shed hoped would keep her safe had tried to murder her instead.
Her uncle Edmure was a captive of the Freys, while her great-uncle the Blackfish was under
siege at Riverrun. I have no place but here, Sansa thought miserably, and no true friend but
Petyr.
That night the dead man sang The Day They Hanged Black Robin, The Mothers Tears,
and The Rains of Castamere. Then he stopped for a while, but just as Sansa began to drift off
he started to play again. He sang Six Sorrows, Fallen Leaves, and Alysanne. Such sad
songs, she thought. When she closed her eyes she could see him in his sky cell, huddled in a
corner away from the cold black sky, crouched beneath a fur with his woodharp cradled against
his chest. I must not pity him, she told herself. He was vain and cruel, and soon he will be dead.
She could not save him. And why should she want to? Marillion tried to rape her, and Petyr had
saved her life not once but twice. Some lies you have to tell. Lies had been all that kept her alive
in Kings Landing. If she had not lied to Joffrey, his Kingsguard would have beat her bloody.

After Alysanne the singer stopped again, long enough for Sansa to snatch an hours rest. But
as the first light of dawn was prying at her shutters, she heard the soft strains of On a Misty
Morn drifting up from below, and woke at once. That was more properly a womans song, a
lament sung by a mother on the dawn after some terrible battle, as she searches amongst the dead
for the body of her only son. The mother sings her grief for her dead son, Sansa thought, but
Marillion grieves for his fingers, for his eyes. The words rose like arrows and pierced her in the
darkness.
Oh, have you seen my boy, good ser?
His hair is chestnut brown
He promised hed come back to me
Our homes in Wendish Town.
Sansa covered her ears with a goose down pillow to shut out the rest of it, but it was no good.
Day had come and she had woken, and Lord Nestor Royce was coming up the mountain.
The High Steward and his party reached the Eyrie in the late afternoon, with the valley gold and
red beneath them and the wind rising. He brought his son Ser Albar, along with a dozen knights
and a score of men-at-arms. So many strangers. Sansa looked at their faces anxiously, wondering
if they were friends or foes.
Petyr welcomed his visitors in a black velvet doublet with grey sleeves that matched his woolen
breeches and lent a certain darkness to his grey-green eyes. Maester Colemon stood beside him,
his chain of many metals hanging loose about his long, skinny neck. Although the maester was
much the taller of the two men, it was the Lord Protector who drew the eye. He had put away his
smiles for the day, it seemed. He listened solemnly as Royce introduced the knights who had
accompanied him, then said, My lords are welcome here. You know our Maester Colemon, of
course. Lord Nestor, you will recall Alayne, my natural daughter?
To be sure. Lord Nestor Royce was a bullnecked, barrel-chested, balding man with a grey-
shot beard and a stern look. He inclined his head a whole half inch in greeting.
Sansa curtsied, too frightened to speak for fear she might misspeak. Petyr drew her to her feet.
Sweetling, be a good girl and bring Lord Robert to the High Hall to receive his guests.
Yes, Father. Her voice sounded thin and strained. A liars voice, she thought as she hurried
up the steps and across the gallery to the Moon Tower. A guilty voice.
Gretchel and Maddy were helping Robert Arryn squirm into his breeches when Sansa stepped
into his bedchamber. The Lord of the Eyrie had been crying again. His eyes were red and raw,
his lashes crusty, his nose swollen and runny. A trail of snot glistened underneath one nostril,
and his lower lip was bloody where hed bitten it. Lord Nestor must not see him like this, Sansa
thought, despairing. Gretchel, fetch me the washbasin. She took the boy by the hand and drew
him to the bed. Did my Sweetrobin sleep well last night?
No. He sniffed. I never slept one bit, Alayne. He was singing again, and my door was
locked. I called for them to let me out, but no one ever came. Someone locked me in my room.
That was wicked of them. Dipping a soft cloth into the warm water, she began to clean his
face... gently, oh so gently. If you scrubbed Robert too briskly, he might begin to shake. The boy

was frail, and terribly small for his age. He was eight, but Sansa had known bigger five-year-
olds.
Roberts lip quivered. I was going to come sleep with you.
I know you were. Sweetrobin had been accustomed to crawling in beside his mother, until she
wed Lord Petyr. Since Lady Lysas death he had taken to wandering the Eyrie in quest of other
beds. The one he liked best was Sansas... which was why she had asked Ser Lothor Brune to
lock his door last night. She would not have minded if he only slept, but he was always trying to
nuzzle at her breasts, and when he had his shaking spells he often wet the bed.
Lord Nestor Royce has come up from the Gates to see you. Sansa wiped beneath his nose.
I dont want to see him, he said. I want a story. A story of the Winged Knight.
After, Sansa said. First you must see Lord Nestor.
Lord Nestor has a mole, he said, squirming. Robert was afraid of men with moles. Mommy
said he was dreadful.
My poor Sweetrobin. Sansa smoothed his hair back. You miss her, I know. Lord Petyr
misses her too. He loved her just as you do. That was a lie, though kindly meant. The only
woman Petyr ever loved was Sansas murdered mother. He had confessed as much to Lady Lysa
just before he pushed her out the Moon Door. She was mad and dangerous. She murdered her
own lord husband, and would have murdered me if Petyr had not come along to save me.
Robert did not need to know that, though. He was only a sick little boy whod loved his mother.
There, Sansa said, you look a proper lord now. Maddy, fetch his cloak. It was lambswool,
soft and warm, a handsome sky-blue that set off the cream color of his tunic. She fastened it
about his shoulders with a silver brooch in the shape of a crescent moon, and took him by the
hand. Robert came meekly for once.
The High Hall had been closed since Lady Lysas fall, and it gave Sansa a chill to enter it again.
The hall was long and grand and beautiful, she supposed, but she did not like it here. It was a
pale cold place at the best of times. The slender pillars looked like fingerbones, and the blue
veins in the white marble brought to mind the veins in an old crones legs. Though fifty silver
sconces lined the walls, less than a dozen torches had been lit, so shadows danced upon the
floors and pooled in every corner. Their footsteps echoed off the marble, and Sansa could hear
the wind rattling at the Moon Door. I must not look at it, she told herself, else Ill start to shake
as badly as Robert.
With Maddys help, she got Robert seated on his weirwood throne with a stack of pillows
underneath him and sent word that his lordship would receive his guests. Two guards in sky-blue
cloaks opened the doors at the lower end of the hall, and Petyr ushered them in and down the
long blue carpet that ran between the rows of bone-white pillars.
The boy greeted Lord Nestor with squeaky courtesy and made no mention of his mole. When
the High Steward asked about his lady mother, Roberts hands began to tremble ever so slightly.
Marillion hurt my mother. He threw her out the Moon Door.
Did your lordship see this happen? asked Ser Marwyn Belmore, a lanky ginger-headed knight
who had been Lysas captain of guards till Petyr had put Ser Lothor Brune in his place.

Alayne saw it, the boy said. And my lord stepfather.
Lord Nestor looked at her. Ser Albar, Ser Marwyn, Maester Colemon, all of them were looking.
She was my aunt but she wanted to kill me, Sansa thought. She dragged me to the Moon Door
and tried to push me out. I never wanted a kiss, I was building a castle in the snow. She hugged
herself to keep from shaking.
Forgive her, my lords, Petyr Baelish said softly. She still has nightmares of that day. Small
wonder if she cannot bear to speak of it. He came up behind her and put his hands gently on her
shoulders. I know how hard this is for you, Alayne, but our friends must hear the truth.
Yes. Her throat felt so dry and tight it almost hurt to speak. I saw... I was with the Lady Lysa
when... A tear rolled down her cheek. Thats good, a tear is good. ... when Marillion... pushed
her. And she told the tale again, hardly hearing the words as they spilled out of her.
Before she was half-done Robert began to cry, the pillows shifting perilously beneath him. He
killed my mother. I want him to fly! The trembling in his hands had grown worse, and his arms
were shaking too. The boys head jerked and his teeth began to chatter. Fly! he shrieked. Fly,
fly. His arms and legs flailed wildly. Lothor Brune strode to the dais in time to catch the boy as
he slipped from his throne. Maester Colemon was just a step behind, though there was naught
that he could do.
Helpless as the rest, Sansa could only stand and watch as the shaking spell ran its course. One
of Roberts legs kicked Ser Lothor in the face. Brune cursed, but still held on as the boy twitched
and flailed and wet himself. Their visitors said not a word; Lord Nestor at least had seen these
fits before. It was long moments before Roberts spasms began to subside, and seemed even
longer. By the end, the little lordling was so weak he could not stand. Best take his lordship
back to bed and bleed him, Lord Petyr said. Brune lifted the boy in his arms and carried him
from the hall. Maester Colemon followed, grim-faced.
When their footsteps died away there was no sound in the High Hall of the Eyrie. Sansa could
hear the night wind moaning outside and scratching at the Moon Door. She was very cold and
very tired. Must I tell the tale again? she wondered.
But she must have told it well enough. Lord Nestor cleared his throat. I misliked that singer
from the first, he grumbled. I urged Lady Lysa to send him away. Many a time I urged her.
You always gave her good counsel, my lord, Petyr said.
She took no heed of it, Royce complained. She heard me grudgingly and took no heed.
My lady was too trusting for this world. Petyr spoke so tenderly that Sansa would have
believed hed loved his wife. Lysa could not see the evil in men, only the good. Marillion sang
sweet songs, and she mistook that for his nature.
He called us pigs, Ser Albar Royce said. A blunt broad-shouldered knight who shaved his
chin but cultivated thick black side-whiskers that framed his homely face like hedgerows, Ser
Albar was a younger version of his father. He made a song about two pigs snuffling round a
mountain, eating a falcons leavings. That was meant to be us, but when I said so he laughed at
me. Why, ser, tis a song about some pigs, he said.

He made mock of me as well, Ser Marwyn Belmore said. Ser Ding-Dong, he named me.
When I vowed Id cut his tongue out, he ran to Lady Lysa and hid behind her skirts.
As oft he did, Lord Nestor said. The man was craven, but the favor Lady Lysa showed him
made him insolent. She dressed him like a lord, gave him gold rings and a moonstone belt.
Even Lord Jons favorite falcon. The knights doublet showed the six white candles of
Waxley. His lordship loved that bird. King Robert gave it to him.
Petyr Baelish sighed. It was unseemly, he agreed, and I put an end to it. Lysa agreed to send
him away. That was why she met him here, that day. I should have been with her, but I never
dreamt... if I had not insisted... it was I who killed her.
No, Sansa thought, you mustnt say that, you mustnt tell them, you mustnt. But Albar Royce
was shaking his head. No, my lord, you must not blame yourself, he said.
This was the singers work, his father agreed. Bring him up, Lord Petyr. Let us write an end
to this sorry business.
Petyr Baelish composed himself, and said, As you wish, my lord. He turned to his guardsmen
and spoke a command, and the singer was fetched up from the dungeons. The gaoler Mord came
with him, a monstrous man with small black eyes and a lopsided, scarred face. One ear and part
of his cheek had been cleaved off in some battle, but twenty stone of pallid white flesh remained.
His clothes fit poorly and had a rank, ripe smell.
Marillion by contrast looked almost elegant. Someone had bathed him and dressed him in a pair
of sky-blue breeches and a loose-fitting white tunic with puffed sleeves, belted with a silvery
sash that had been a gift from Lady Lysa. White silk gloves covered his hands, while a white silk
bandage spared the lords the sight of his eyes.
Mord stood behind him with a lash. When the gaoler prodded him in the ribs, the singer went to
one knee. Good lords, I beg your forgiveness.
Lord Nestor scowled. You confess your crime?
If I had eyes I should weep. The singers voice, so strong and sure by night, was cracked and
whispery now. I loved her so, I could not bear to see her in anothers arms, to know she shared
his bed. I meant no harm to my sweet lady, I swear it. I barred the door so no one could disturb
us whilst I declared my passion, but Lady Lysa was so cold... when she told that she was
carrying Lord Petyrs child, a... a madness seized me...
Sansa stared at his hands while he spoke. Fat Maddy claimed that Mord had taken off three of
his fingers, both pinkies and a ring finger. His little fingers did appear somewhat stiffer than the
others, but with those gloves it was hard to be certain. It might have been no more than a story.
How would Maddy know?
Lord Petyr has been kind enough to let me keep my harp, the blind singer said. My harp
and... my tongue... so I may sing my songs. Lady Lysa dearly loved my singing...
Take this creature away, or Im like to kill him myself, Lord Nestor growled. It sickens me
to look at him.
Mord, take him back to his sky cell, said Petyr.

Yes, mlord. Mord grabbed Marillion roughly by the collar. No more mouth. When he
spoke, Sansa saw to her astonishment that the gaolers teeth were made of gold. They watched as
he half dragged half shoved the singer toward the doors.
The man must die, Ser Marywn Belmore declared when they were gone. He should have
followed Lady Lysa out the Moon Door.
Without his tongue, Ser Albar Royce added. Without that lying, mocking tongue.
I have been too gentle with him, I know, Petyr Baelish said in an apologetic tone. If truth be
told, I pity him. He killed for love.
For love or hate, said Belmore, he must die.
Soon enough, Lord Nestor said gruffly. No man lingers long in the sky cells. The blue will
call to him.
It may, said Petyr Baelish, but whether Marillion will answer, only he can say. He gestured,
and his guardsmen opened the doors at the far end of the hall. Sers, I know you must be weary
after your ascent. Rooms have been prepared for all of you to spend the night, and food and wine
await you in the Lower Hall. Oswell, show them the way, and see that they have all they need.
He turned to Nestor Royce. My lord, will you join me in the solar for a cup of wine? Alayne,
sweetling, come pour for us.
A low fire burned in the solar, where a flagon of wine awaited them. Arbor gold. Sansa filled
Lord Nestors cup whilst Petyr prodded at the logs with an iron poker.
Lord Nestor seated himself beside the fire. This will not be the end of it, he said to Petyr, as if
Sansa were not there. My cousin means to question the singer himself.
Bronze Yohn mistrusts me. Petyr pushed a log aside.
He means to come in force. Symond Templeton will join him, do not doubt it. And Lady
Waynwood too, I fear.
And Lord Belmore, Young Lord Hunter, Horton Redfort. They will bring Strong Sam Stone,
the Tolletts, the Shetts, the Coldwaters, some Corbrays.
You are well-informed. Which Corbrays? Not Lord Lyonel?
No, his brother. Ser Lyn mislikes me, for some reason.
Lyn Corbray is a dangerous man, Lord Nestor said doggedly. What do you intend to do?
What can I do but make them welcome if they come? Petyr gave the flames another stir and
set the poker down.
My cousin means to remove you as Lord Protector.
If so, I cannot stop him. I keep a garrison of twenty men. Lord Royce and his friends can raise
twenty thousand. Petyr went to the oaken chest that sat beneath the window. Bronze Yohn will
do what he will do, he said, kneeling. He opened the chest, drew out a roll of parchment, and
brought it to Lord Nestor. My lord. This is a token of the love my lady bore you.
Sansa watched Royce unroll the parchment. This... this is unexpected, my lord. She was
startled to see tears in his eyes.
Unexpected, but not undeserved. My lady valued you above all her other bannermen. You
were her rock, she told me.

Her rock. Lord Nestor reddened. She said that?
Often. And thisPetyr gestured at the parchmentis the proof of it.
That... that is good to know. Jon Arryn valued my service, I know, but Lady Lysa... she
scorned me when I came to court her, and I feared... Lord Nestor furrowed his brow. It bears
the Arryn seal, I see, but the signature...
Lysa was murdered before the document could be presented for her signature, so I signed as
Lord Protector. I knew that would have been her wish.
I see. Lord Nestor rolled the parchment. You are... dutiful, my lord. Aye, and not without
courage. Some will call this grant unseemly, and fault you for making it. The Keepers post has
never been hereditary. The Arryns raised the Gates, in the days when they still wore the Falcon
Crown and ruled the Vale as kings. The Eyrie was their summer seat, but when the snows began
to fall the court would make its descent. Some would say the Gates were as royal as the Eyrie.
There has been no king in the Vale for three hundred years, Petyr Baelish pointed out.
The dragons came, Lord Nestor agreed. But even after, the Gates remained an Arryn castle.
Jon Arryn himself was Keeper of the Gates whilst his father lived. After his ascent, he named his
brother Ronnel to the honor, and later his cousin Denys.
Lord Robert has no brothers, and only distant cousins.
True. Lord Nestor clutched the parchment tightly. I will not say I had not hoped for this.
Whilst Lord Jon ruled the realm as Hand, it fell to me to rule the Vale for him. I did all that he
required of me and asked nothing for myself. But by the gods, I earned this!
You did, said Petyr, and Lord Robert sleeps more easily knowing that you are always there,
a staunch friend at the foot of his mountain. He raised a cup. So... a toast, my lord. To House
Royce, Keepers of the Gates of the Moon... now and forever.
Now and forever, aye! The silver cups crashed together.
Later, much later, after the flagon of Arbor gold was dry, Lord Nestor took his leave to rejoin
his company of knights. Sansa was asleep on her feet by then, wanting only to crawl off to her
bed, but Petyr caught her by the wrist. You see the wonders that can be worked with lies and
Arbor gold?
Why did she feel like weeping? It was good that Nestor Royce was with them. Were they all
lies?
Not all. Lysa often called Lord Nestor a rock, though I do not think she meant it as a
compliment. She called his son a clod. She knew Lord Nestor dreamed of holding the Gates in
his own right, a lord in truth as well as name, but Lysa dreamed of other sons and meant the
castle to go to Roberts little brother. He stood. Do you understand what happened here,
Alayne?
Sansa hesitated a moment. You gave Lord Nestor the Gates of the Moon to be certain of his
support.
I did, Petyr admitted, but our rock is a Royce, which is to say he is overproud and prickly.
Had I asked him his price, he would have swelled up like an angry toad at the slight upon his
honor. But this way... the man is not utterly stupid, but the lies I served him were sweeter than

the truth. He wants to believe that Lysa valued him above her other bannermen. One of those
others is Bronze Yohn, after all, and Nestor is very much aware that he was born of the lesser
branch of House Royce. He wants more for his son. Men of honor will do things for their
children that they would never consider doing for themselves.
She nodded. The signature... you might have had Lord Robert put his hand and seal to it, but
instead...
... I signed myself, as Lord Protector. Why?
So... if you are removed, or... or killed...
... Lord Nestors claim to the Gates will suddenly be called into question. I promise you, that is
not lost on him. It was clever of you to see it. Though no more than Id expect of mine own
daughter.
Thank you. She felt absurdly proud for puzzling it out, but confused as well. Im not,
though. Your daughter. Not truly. I mean, I pretend to be Alayne, but you know...
Littlefinger put a finger to her lips. I know what I know, and so do you. Some things are best
left unsaid, sweetling.
Even when we are alone?
Especially when we are alone. Elsewise a day will come when a servant walks into a room
unannounced, or a guardsman at the door chances to hear something he should not. Do you want
more blood on your pretty little hands, my darling?
Marillions face seemed to float before her, the bandage pale across his eyes. Behind him she
could see Ser Dontos, the crossbow bolts still in him. No, Sansa said. Please.
I am tempted to say this is no game we play, daughter, but of course it is. The game of
thrones.
I never asked to play. The game was too dangerous. One slip and I am dead. Oswell... my lord,
Oswell rowed me from Kings Landing the night that I escaped. He must know who I am.
If hes half as clever as a sheep pellet, you would think so. Ser Lothor knows as well. But
Oswell has been in my service a long time, and Brune is close-mouthed by nature. Kettleblack
watches Brune for me, and Brune watches Kettleblack. Trust no one, I once told Eddard Stark,
but he would not listen. You are Alayne, and you must be Alayne all the time. He put two
fingers on her left breast. Even here. In your heart. Can you do that? Can you be my daughter in
your heart?
I... I do not know, my lord, she almost said, but that was not what he wanted to hear. Lies and
Arbor gold, she thought. I am Alayne, Father. Who else would I be?
Lord Littlefinger kissed her cheek. With my wits and Cats beauty, the world will be yours,
sweetling. Now off to bed.
Gretchel had laid a fire in her hearth and plumped her featherbed. Sansa undressed and slipped
beneath the blankets. He will not sing tonight, she prayed, not with Lord Nestor and the others in
the castle. He would not dare. She closed her eyes.
Sometime during the night she woke, as little Robert climbed up into her bed. I forgot to tell
Lothor to lock him in again, she realized. There was nothing to be done for it, so she put her arm

around him. Sweetrobin? You can stay, but try not to squirm around. Just close your eyes and
sleep, little one.
I will. He cuddled close and laid his head between her breasts. Alayne? Are you my mother
now?
I suppose I am, she said. If a lie was kindly meant, there was no harm in it.

THE KRAKENS DAUGHTER
The hall was loud with drunken Harlaws, distant cousins all. Each lord had hung his
banner behind the benches where his men were seated. Too few, thought Asha Greyjoy, looking
down from the gallery, too few by far. The benches were three-quarters empty.
Qarl the Maid had said as much, when the Black Wind was approaching from the sea. He had
counted the longships moored beneath her uncles castle, and his mouth had tightened. They
have not come, he observed, or not enough of them. He was not wrong, but Asha could not
agree with him, out where her crew might hear. She did not doubt their devotion, but even
ironborn will hesitate to give their lives for a cause thats plainly lost.
Do I have so few friends as this? Amongst the banners, she saw the silver fish of Botley, the
stone tree of the Stonetrees, the black leviathan of Volmark, the nooses of the Myres. The rest
were Harlaw scythes. Boremund placed his upon a pale blue field, Hothos was girdled within an
embattled border, and the Knight had quartered his with the gaudy peacock of his mothers
House. Even Sigfryd Silverhair showed two scythes counterchanged on a field divided bendwise.
Only the Lord Harlaw displayed the silver scythe plain upon a night-black field, as it had flown
in the dawn of days: Rodrik, called the Reader, Lord of the Ten Towers, Lord of Harlaw, Harlaw
of Harlaw... her favorite uncle.
Lord Rodriks high seat was vacant. Two scythes of beaten silver crossed above it, so huge that
even a giant would have difficulty wielding them, but beneath were only empty cushions. Asha
was not surprised. The feast was long concluded. Only bones and greasy platters remained upon
the trestle tables. The rest was drinking, and her uncle Rodrik had never been partial to the
company of quarrelsome drunks.
She turned to Three-Tooth, an old woman of fearful age who had been her uncles steward
since she was known as Twelve-Tooth. My uncle is with his books?
Aye, where else? The woman was so old that a septon had once said she must have nursed
the Crone. That was when the Faith was still tolerated on the isles. Lord Rodrik had kept septons
at Ten Towers, not for his souls sake but for his books. With the books, and Botley. He was
with him too.
Botleys standard hung in the hall, a shoal of silver fish upon a pale green field, though Asha
had not seen his Swiftfin amongst the other longships. I had heard my nuncle Crows Eye had
old Sawane Botley drowned.
Lord Tristifer Botley, this one is.
Tris. She wondered what had happened to Sawanes elder son, Harren. I will find out soon
enough, no doubt. This should be awkward. She had not seen Tris Botley since... no, she ought
not dwell on it. And my lady mother?
Abed, said Three-Tooth, in the Widows Tower.
Aye, where else? The widow the tower was named after was her aunt. Lady Gwynesse had
come home to mourn after her husband had died off Fair Isle during Balon Greyjoys first
rebellion. I will only stay until my grief has passed, she had told her brother, famously,

though by rights Ten Towers should be mine, for I am seven years your elder. Long years had
passed since then, but still the widow lingered, grieving, and muttering from time to time that the
castle should be hers. And now Lord Rodrik has a second half-mad widowed sister beneath his
roof, Asha reflected. Small wonder if he seeks solace in his books.
Even now, it was hard to credit that frail, sickly Lady Alannys had outlived her husband Lord
Balon, who had seemed so hard and strong. When Asha had sailed away to war, she had done so
with a heavy heart, fearing that her mother might well die before she could return. Not once had
she thought that her father might perish instead. The Drowned God plays savage japes upon us
all, but men are crueler still. A sudden storm and a broken rope had sent Balon Greyjoy to his
death. Or so they claim.
Asha had last seen her mother when she stopped at Ten Towers to take on fresh water, on her
way north to strike at Deepwood Motte. Alannys Harlaw never had the sort of beauty the singers
cherished, but her daughter had loved her fierce strong face and the laughter in her eyes. On that
last visit, though, she had found Lady Alannys in a window seat huddled beneath a pile of furs,
staring out across the sea. Is this my mother, or her ghost? she remembered thinking as shed
kissed her cheek.
Her mothers skin had been parchment thin, her long hair white. Some pride remained in the
way she held her head, but her eyes were dim and cloudy, and her mouth had trembled when she
asked after Theon. Did you bring my baby boy? she had asked. Theon had been ten years old
when he was carried off to Winterfell a hostage, and so far as Lady Alannys was concerned he
would always be ten years old, it seemed. Theon could not come, Asha had to tell her. Father
sent him reaving along the Stony Shore. Lady Alannys had naught to say to that. She only
nodded slowly, yet it was plain to see how deep her daughters words had cut her.
And now I must tell her that Theon is dead, and drive yet another dagger through her heart.
There were two knives buried there already. On the blades were writ the words Rodrik and
Maron, and many a time they twisted cruelly in the night. I will see her on the morrow, Asha
vowed to herself. Her journey had been long and wearisome, she could not face her mother now.
I must speak with Lord Rodrik, she told Three-Tooth. See to my crew, once theyre done
unloading Black Wind. Theyll bring captives. I want them to have warm beds and a hot meal.
Theres cold beef in the kitchens. And mustard in a big stone jar, from Oldtown. The thought
of that mustard made the old woman smile. A single long brown tooth poked from her gums.
That will not serve. We had a rough crossing. I want something hot in their bellies. Asha
hooked a thumb through the studded belt about her hips. Lady Glover and the children should
not want for wood nor warmth. Put them in some tower, not the dungeons. The babe is sick.
Babes are often sick. Most die, and folks are sorry. I shall ask my lord where to put these wolf
folk.
She caught the womans nose between thumb and forefinger and pinched. You will do as I
say. And if this babe dies, no one will be sorrier than you. Three-Tooth squealed and promised
to obey, till Asha let her loose and went to find her uncle.

It was good to walk these halls again. Ten Towers had always felt like home to Asha, more so
than Pyke. Not one castle, ten castles squashed together, she had thought, the first time she had
seen it. She remembered breathless races up and down the steps and along wallwalks and
covered bridges, fishing off the Long Stone Quay, days and nights lost amongst her uncles
wealth of books. His grandfathers grandfather had raised the castle, the newest on the isles. Lord
Theomore Harlaw had lost three sons in the cradle and laid the blame upon the flooded cellars,
damp stones, and festering nitre of ancient Harlaw Hall. Ten Towers was airier, more
comfortable, better sited... but Lord Theomore was a changeable man, as any of his wives might
have testified. Hed had six of those, as dissimilar as his ten towers.
The Book Tower was the fattest of the ten, octagonal in shape and made with great blocks of
hewn stone. The stair was built within the thickness of the walls. Asha climbed quickly, to the
fifth story and the room where her uncle read. Not that there are any rooms where he does not
read. Lord Rodrik was seldom seen without a book in hand, be it in the privy, on the deck of his
Sea Song, or whilst holding audience. Asha had oft seen him reading on his high seat beneath the
silver scythes. He would listen to each case as it was laid before him, pronounce his judgment...
and read a bit whilst his captain-of-guards went to bring in the next supplicant.
She found him hunched over a table by a window, surrounded by parchment scrolls that might
have come from Valyria before its Doom, and heavy leather-bound books with bronze-and-iron
hasps. Beeswax candles as thick and tall as a mans arm burned on either side of where he sat, on
ornate iron holders. Lord Rodrik Harlaw was neither fat nor slim; neither tall nor short; neither
ugly nor handsome. His hair was brown, as were his eyes, though the short, neat beard he
favored had gone grey. All in all, he was an ordinary man, distinguished only by his love of
written words, which so many ironborn found unmanly and perverse.
Nuncle. She closed the door behind her. What reading was so urgent that you leave your
guests without a host?
Archmaester Marwyns Book of Lost Books. He lifted his gaze from the page to study her.
Hotho brought me a copy from Oldtown. He has a daughter he would have me wed. Lord
Rodrik tapped the book with a long nail. See here? Marwyn claims to have found three pages of
Signs and Portents, visions written down by the maiden daughter of Aenar Targaryen before the
Doom came to Valyria. Does Lanny know that you are here?
Not as yet. Lanny was his pet name for her mother; only the Reader called her that. Let her
rest. Asha moved a stack of books off a stool and seated herself. Three-Tooth seems to have
lost two more of her teeth. Do you call her One-Tooth now?
I seldom call her at all. The woman frightens me. What hour is it? Lord Rodrik glanced out
the window, at the moonlit sea. Dark, so soon? I had not noticed. You come late. We looked for
you some days ago.
The winds were against us, and I had captives to concern me. Robett Glovers wife and
children. The youngest is still at the breast, and Lady Glovers milk dried up during our crossing.
I had no choice but to beach Black Wind upon the Stony Shore and send my men out to find a

wet nurse. They found a goat instead. The girl does not thrive. Is there a nursing mother in the
village? Deepwood is important to my plans.
Your plans must change. You come too late.
Late and hungry. She stretched her long legs out beneath the table and turned the pages of the
nearest book, a septons discourse on Maegor the Cruels war against the Poor Fellows. Oh, and
thirsty too. A horn of ale would go down well, Nuncle.
Lord Rodrik pursed his lips. You know I do not permit food nor drink in my library. The
books
might suffer harm. Asha laughed.
Her uncle frowned. You do like to provoke me.
Oh, dont look so aggrieved. I have never met a man I didnt provoke, you should know that
well enough by now. But enough of me. You are well?
He shrugged. Well enough. My eyes grow weaker. I have sent to Myr for a lens to help me
read.
And how fares my aunt?
Lord Rodrik sighed. Still seven years my elder, and convinced Ten Towers should be hers.
Gwynesse grows forgetful, but that she does not forget. She mourns for her dead husband as
deeply as she did the day he died, though she cannot always recall his name.
I am not certain she ever knew his name. Asha closed the septons book with a thump. Was
my father murdered?
So your mother believes.
There were times when she would gladly have murdered him herself, she thought. And what
does my nuncle believe?
Balon fell to his death when a rope bridge broke beneath him. A storm was rising, and the
bridge was swaying and twisting with each gust of wind. Rodrik shrugged. Or so we are told.
Your mother had a bird from Maester Wendamyr.
Asha slid her dirk out of its sheath and began to clean the dirt from beneath her fingernails.
Three years away, and the Crows Eye returns the very day my father dies.
The day after, we had heard. Silence was still out to sea when Balon died, or so it is claimed.
Even so, I will agree that Eurons return was... timely, shall we say?
That is not how I would say it. Asha slammed the point of the dirk into the table. Where are
my ships? I counted twoscore longships moored below, not near enough to throw the Crows Eye
off my fathers chair.
I sent the summons. In your name, for the love I bear you and your mother. House Harlaw has
gathered. Stonetree as well, and Volmark. Some Myres...
All from the isle of Harlaw... one isle out of seven. I saw one lonely Botley banner in the hall,
from Pyke. Where are the ships from Saltcliffe, from Orkwood, from the Wyks?
Baelor Blacktyde came from Blacktyde to consult with me, and just as soon set sail again.
Lord Rodrik closed The Book of Lost Books. He is on Old Wyk by now.

Old Wyk? Asha had feared he was about to say that they all had gone to Pyke, to do homage
to the Crows Eye. Why Old Wyk?
I thought you would have heard. Aeron Damphair has called a kingsmoot.
Asha threw back her head and laughed. The Drowned God must have shoved a pricklefish up
Uncle Aerons arse. A kingsmoot? Is this some jape, or does he mean it truly?
The Damphair has not japed since he was drowned. And the other priests have taken up the
call. Blind Beron Blacktyde, Tarle the Thrice-Drowned... even the Old Grey Gull has left that
rock he lives on to preach this kingsmoot all across Harlaw. The captains are gathering on Old
Wyk as we speak.
Asha was astonished. Has the Crows Eye agreed to attend this holy farce and abide by its
decision?
The Crows Eye does not confide in me. Since he summoned me to Pyke to do him homage, I
have had no word from Euron.
A kingsmoot. This is something new... or rather, something very old. And my uncle Victarion?
What does he make of the Damphairs notion?
Victarion was sent word of your fathers death. And of this kingsmoot too, I do not doubt.
Beyond that, I cannot say.
Better a kingsmoot than a war. I believe Ill kiss the Damphairs smelly feet and pluck the
seaweed from out between his toes. Asha wrenched loose her dirk and sheathed it once again.
A bloody kingsmoot!
On Old Wyk, confirmed Lord Rodrik. Though I pray it is not bloody. I have been consulting
Haeregs History of the Ironborn. When last the salt kings and the rock kings met in kingsmoot,
Urron of Orkmont let his axemen loose among them, and Naggas ribs turned red with gore.
House Greyiron ruled unchosen for a thousand years from that dark day, until the Andals came.
You must lend me Haeregs book, Nuncle. She would need to learn all she could of
kingsmoots before she reached Old Wyk.
You may read it here. It is old and fragile. He studied her, frowning. Archmaester Rigney
once wrote that history is a wheel, for the nature of man is fundamentally unchanging. What has
happened before will perforce happen again, he said. I think of that whenever I contemplate the
Crows Eye. Euron Greyjoy sounds queerly like Urron Greyiron to these old ears. I shall not go
to Old Wyk. Nor should you.
Asha smiled. And miss the first kingsmoot called in... how long has it been, Nuncle?
Four thousand years, if Haereg can be believed. Half that, if you accept Maester Denestans
arguments in Questions. Going to Old Wyk serves no purpose. This dream of kingship is a
madness in our blood. I told your father so the first time he rose, and it is more true now than it
was then. Its land we need, not crowns. With Stannis Baratheon and Tywin Lannister
contending for the Iron Throne, we have a rare chance to improve our lot. Let us take one side or
the other, help them to victory with our fleets, and claim the lands we need from a grateful king.
That might be worth some thought, once I sit the Seastone Chair, said Asha.

Her uncle sighed. You will not want to hear this, Asha, but you will not be chosen. No woman
has ever ruled the ironborn. Gwynesse is seven years my elder, but when our father died the Ten
Towers came to me. It will be the same for you. You are Balons daughter, not his son. And you
have three uncles.
Four.
Three kraken uncles. I do not count.
You do with me. So long as I have my nuncle of Ten Towers, I have Harlaw. Harlaw was not
the largest of the Iron Islands, but it was the richest and most populous, and Lord Rodriks power
was not to be despised. On Harlaw, Harlaw had no rival. The Volmarks and Stonetrees had large
holdings on the isle and boasted famous captains and fierce warriors of their own, but even the
fiercest bent beneath the scythe. The Kennings and the Myres, once bitter foes, had long ago
been beaten down to vassals.
My cousins do me fealty, and in war I should command their swords and sails. In kingsmoot,
though... Lord Rodrik shook his head. Beneath the bones of Nagga every captain stands as
equal. Some may shout your name, I do not doubt it. But not enough. And when the shouts ring
out for Victarion or the Crows Eye, some of those now drinking in my hall will join the rest. I
say again, do not sail into this storm. Your fight is hopeless.
No fight is hopeless till it has been fought. I have the best claim. I am the heir of Balons
body.
You are still a willful child. Think of your poor mother. You are all that Lanny has left to her.
I will put a torch to Black Wind if need be, to keep you here.
What, and make me swim to Old Wyk?
A long cold swim, for a crown you cannot keep. Your father had more courage than sense. The
Old Way served the isles well when we were one small kingdom amongst many, but Aegons
Conquest put an end to that. Balon refused to see what was plain before him. The Old Way died
with Black Harren and his sons.
I know that. Asha had loved her father, but she did not delude herself. Balon had been blind
in some respects. A brave man but a bad lord. Does that mean we must live and die as thralls to
the Iron Throne? If there are rocks to starboard and a storm to port, a wise captain steers a third
course.
Show me this third course.
I shall... at my queensmoot. Nuncle, how can you even think of not attending? This will be
history, alive...
I prefer my history dead. Dead history is writ in ink, the living sort in blood.
Do you want to die old and craven in your bed?
How else? Though not till Im done reading. Lord Rodrik went to the window. You have not
asked about your lady mother.
I was afraid. How is she?
Stronger. She may yet outlive us all. She will certainly outlive you, if you persist in this folly.
She eats more than she did when she first came here, and oft sleeps through the night.

Good. In her final years on Pyke, Lady Alannys could not sleep. She would wander the halls
at night with a candle, looking for her sons. Maron? she would call shrilly. Rodrik, where are
you? Theon, my baby, come to Mother. Many a time Asha had watched the maester draw
splinters from her mothers heels of a morning, after she had crossed the swaying plank bridge to
the Sea Tower on bare feet. I will see her in the morning.
She will ask for word of Theon.
The Prince of Winterfell. What have you told her?
Little and less. There was naught to tell. He hesitated. You are certain that he is dead?
I am certain of nothing.
You found a body?
We found parts of many bodies. The wolves were there before us... the four-legged sort, but
they showed scant reverence for their two-legged kin. The bones of the slain were scattered,
cracked open for their marrow. I confess, it was hard to know what happened there. It seemed as
though the northmen fought amongst themselves.
Crows will fight over a dead mans flesh and kill each other for his eyes. Lord Rodrik stared
across the sea, watching the play of moonlight on the waves. We had one king, then five. Now
all I see are crows, squabbling over the corpse of Westeros. He fastened the shutters. Do not go
to Old Wyk, Asha. Stay with your mother. We shall not have her long, I fear.
Asha shifted in her seat. My mother raised me to be bold. If I do not go, I will spend the rest of
my life wondering what might have happened if I had.
If you do go, the rest of your life may be too short for wondering.
Better that than fill the remainder of my days complaining that the Seastone Chair by rights
was mine. I am no Gwynesse.
That made him wince. Asha, my two tall sons fed the crabs of Fair Isle. I am not like to wed
again. Stay, and I shall name you heir to the Ten Towers. Be content with that.
Ten Towers? Would that I could. Your cousins will not like that. The Knight, old Sigfryd,
Hotho Humpback...
They have lands and seats of their own.
True enough. Damp, decaying Harlaw Hall belonged to old Sigfryd Harlaw the Silverhair;
humpbacked Hotho Harlaw had his seat at the Tower of Glimmering, on a crag above the
western coast. The Knight, Ser Harras Harlaw, kept court at Grey Garden; Boremund the Blue
ruled atop Harridan Hill. But each was subject to Lord Rodrik. Boremund has three sons,
Sigfryd Silverhair has grandsons, and Hotho has ambitions, Asha said. They all mean to follow
you, even Sigfryd. That one intends to live forever.
The Knight will be the Lord of Harlaw after me, her uncle said, but he can rule from Grey
Garden as easily as from here. Do fealty to him for the castle and Ser Harras will protect you.
I can protect myself. Nuncle, I am a kraken. Asha, of House Greyjoy. She pushed to her feet.
Its my fathers seat I want, not yours. Those scythes of yours look perilous. One could fall and
slice my head off. No, Ill sit the Seastone Chair.

Then you are just another crow, screaming for carrion. Rodrik sat again behind his table.
Go. I wish to return to Archmaester Marwyn and his search.
Let me know if he should find another page. Her uncle was her uncle. He would never
change. But he will come to Old Wyk, no matter what he says.
By now her crew would be eating in the hall. Asha knew she ought to join them, to speak of this
gathering on Old Wyk and what it meant for them. Her own men would be solidly behind her,
but she would need the rest as well, her Harlaw cousins, the Volmarks, and the Stonetrees. Those
are the ones I must win. Her victory at Deepwood Motte would serve her in good stead, once her
men began to boast of it, as she knew they would. The crew of her Black Wind took a perverse
pride in the deeds of their woman captain. Half of them loved her like a daughter, and other half
wanted to spread her legs, but either sort would die for her. And I for them, she was thinking as
she shouldered through the door at the bottom of the steps, into the moonlit yard.
Asha? A shadow stepped out from behind the well.
Her hand went to her dirk at once... until the moonlight transformed the dark shape into a man
in a sealskin cloak. Another ghost. Tris. Id thought to find you in the hall.
I wanted to see you.
What part of me, I wonder? She grinned. Well, here I stand, all grown up. Look all you
like.
A woman. He moved closer. And beautiful.
Tristifer Botley had filled out since last shed seen him, but he had the same unruly hair that she
remembered, and eyes as large and trusting as a seals. Sweet eyes, truly. That was the trouble
with poor Tristifer; he was too sweet for the Iron Islands. His face has grown comely, she
thought. As a boy Tris had been much troubled by pimples. Asha had suffered the same
affliction; perhaps that had been what drew them together.
I was sorry to hear about your father, she told him.
I grieve for yours.
Why? Asha almost asked. It was Balon whod sent the boy away from Pyke, to be a ward of
Baelor Blacktydes. Is it true you are Lord Botley now?
In name, at least. Harren died at Moat Cailin. One of the bog devils shot him with a poisoned
arrow. But I am the lord of nothing. When my father denied his claim to the Seastone Chair, the
Crows Eye drowned him and made my uncles swear him fealty. Even after that he gave half my
fathers lands to Iron Holt. Lord Wynch was the first man to bend his knee and call him king.
House Wynch was strong on Pyke, but Asha took care not to let her dismay show. Wynch
never had your fathers courage.
Your uncle bought him, Tris said. The Silence returned with holds full of treasure. Plate and
pearls, emeralds and rubies, sapphires big as eggs, bags of coin so heavy that no man can lift
them... the Crows Eye has been buying friends at every hand. My uncle Germund calls himself
Lord Botley now, and rules in Lordsport as your uncles man.
You are the rightful Lord Botley, she assured him. Once I hold the Seastone Chair, your
fathers lands shall be restored.

If you like. Its nought to me. You look so lovely in the moonlight, Asha. A woman grown
now, but I remember when you were a skinny girl with a face all full of pimples.
Why must they always mention the pimples? I remember that as well. Though not as fondly
as you do. Of the five boys her mother had brought to Pyke to foster after Ned Stark had taken
her last living son as hostage, Tris had been closest to Asha in age. He had not been the first boy
she had ever kissed, but he was the first to undo the laces of her jerkin and slip a sweaty hand
beneath to feel her budding breasts.
I would have let him feel more than that if hed been bold enough. Her first flowering had come
upon her during the war and wakened her desire, but even before that Asha had been curious. He
was there, he was mine own age, and he was willing, that was all it was... that, and the moon
blood. Even so, shed called it love, till Tris began to go on about the children she would bear
him; a dozen sons at least, and oh, some daughters too. I dont want to have a dozen sons, she
had told him, appalled. I want to have adventures. Not long after, Maester Qalen found them at
their play, and young Tristifer Botley was sent away to Blacktyde.
I wrote you letters, he said, but Maester Joseran would not send them. Once I gave a stag to
an oarsman on a trader bound for Lordsport, who promised to put my letter in your hands.
Your oarsman winkled you and threw your letter in the sea.
I feared as much. They never gave me your letters either.
I wrote none. In truth, she had been relieved when Tris was sent away. By then his fumblings
had begun to bore her. That was not something he would care to hear, however. Aeron
Damphair has called a kingsmoot. Will you come and speak for me?
I will go anywhere with you, but... Lord Blacktyde says this kingsmoot is a dangerous folly.
He thinks your uncle will descend on them and kill them all, as Urron did.
Hes mad enough. He lacks the strength.
You do not know his strength. Hes been gathering men on Pyke. Orkwood of Orkmont
brought him twenty longships, and Pinchface Jon Myre a dozen. Left-Hand Lucas Codd is with
them. And Harren Half-Hoare, the Red Oarsman, Kemmett Pyke the Bastard, Rodrik Freeborn,
Torwold Browntooth...
Men of small account. Asha knew them, every one. The sons of salt wives, the grandsons of
thralls. The Codds... do you know their words?
Though All Men Do Despise Us, Tris said, but if they catch you in those nets of theirs,
youll be as dead as if they had been dragonlords. And theres worse. The Crows Eye brought
back monsters from the east... aye, and wizards too.
Nuncle always had a fondness for freaks and fools, said Asha. My father used to fight with
him about it. Let the wizards call upon their gods. The Damphair will call on ours, and drown
them. Will I have your voice at the queensmoot, Tris?
You shall have all of me. I am your man, forever. Asha, I would wed you. Your lady mother
has given her consent.
She stifled a groan. You might have asked me first... though you might not have liked the
answer half so well.

I am no second son now, he went on. I am the rightful Lord Botley, as you said yourself.
And you are
What I am will be settled on Old Wyk. Tris, we are no longer children fumbling at each other
and trying to see what fits where. You think you want to wed me, but you dont.
I do. All I dream about is you. Asha, I swear upon the bones of Nagga, I have never touched
another woman.
Go touch one... or two, or ten. I have touched more men than I can count. Some with my lips,
more with my axe. She had surrendered her virtue at six-and-ten, to a beautiful blond-haired
sailor on a trading galley up from Lys. He only knew six words of the Common Tongue, but
fuck was one of themthe very word shed hoped to hear. Afterward, Asha had the sense to
find a woods witch, who showed her how to brew moon tea to keep her belly flat.
Botley blinked, as if he did not quite understand what she had said. You... I thought you would
wait. Why... He rubbed his mouth. Asha, were you forced?
So forced I tore his tunic. You do not want to wed me, take my word on that. You are a sweet
boy and always were, but I am no sweet girl. If we wed, soon enough youd come to hate me.
Never. Asha, I have ached for you.
She had heard enough of this. A sickly mother, a murdered father, and a plague of uncles were
enough for any woman to contend with; she did not require a lovesick puppy too. Find a
brothel, Tris. Theyll cure you of that ache.
I could never... Tristifer shook his head. You and I were meant to be, Asha. I have always
known you would be my wife, and the mother of my sons. He seized her upper arm.
In a blink her dirk was at his throat. Take your hand away or you wont live long enough to
breed a son. Now. When he did, she lowered the blade. You want a woman, well and good. Ill
put one in your bed tonight. Pretend shes me, if that will give you pleasure, but do not presume
to grab at me again. I am your queen, not your wife. Remember that. Asha sheathed her dirk
and left him standing there, with a fat drop of blood slowly creeping down his neck, black in the
pale light of the moon.

CERSEI
Oh, I pray the Seven will not let it rain upon the kings wedding, Jocelyn Swyft said as
she laced up the queens gown.
No one wants rain, said Cersei. For herself, she wanted sleet and ice, howling winds, thunder
to shake the very stones of the Red Keep. She wanted a storm to match her rage. To Jocelyn she
said, Tighter. Cinch it tighter, you simpering little fool.
It was the wedding that enraged her, though the slow-witted Swyft girl made a safer target.
Tommens hold upon the Iron Throne was not secure enough for her to risk offending
Highgarden. Not so long as Stannis Baratheon held Dragonstone and Storms End, so long as
Riverrun continued in defiance, so long as ironmen prowled the seas like wolves. So Jocelyn
must needs eat the meal Cersei would sooner have served to Margaery Tyrell and her hideous
wrinkled grandmother.
To break her fast the queen sent to the kitchens for two boiled eggs, a loaf of bread, and a pot of
honey. But when she cracked the first egg and found a bloody half-formed chick inside, her
stomach roiled. Take this away and bring me hot spiced wine, she told Senelle. The chill in the
air was settling in her bones, and she had a long nasty day ahead of her.
Nor did Jaime help her mood when he turned up all in white and still unshaven, to tell her how
he meant to keep her son from being poisoned. I will have men in the kitchens watching as each
dish is prepared, he said. Ser Addams gold cloaks will escort the servants as they bring the
food to table, to make certain no tampering takes place along the way. Ser Boros will be tasting
every course before Tommen puts a bite into his mouth. And if all that should fail, Maester
Ballabar will be seated in the back of the hall, with purges and antidotes for twenty common
poisons on his person. Tommen will be safe, I promise you.
Safe. The word tasted bitter on her tongue. Jaime did not understand. No one understood.
Only Melara had been in the tent to hear the old hags croaking threats, and Melara was long
dead. Tyrion will not kill the same way twice. He is too cunning for that. He could be under the
floor even now, listening to every word we say and making plans to open Tommens throat.
Suppose he was, said Jaime. Whatever plans he makes, he will still be small and stunted.
Tommen will be surrounded by the finest knights in Westeros. The Kingsguard will protect
him.
Cersei glanced at where the sleeve of her brothers white silk tunic had been pinned up over his
stump. I remember how well they guarded Joffrey, these splendid knights of yours. I want you
to remain with Tommen all night, is that understood?
I will have a guardsman outside his door.
She seized his arm. Not a guardsman. You. And inside his bedchamber.
In case Tyrion crawls out of the hearth? He wont.
So you say. Will you tell me that you found all the hidden tunnels in these walls? They both
knew better. I will not have Tommen alone with Margaery, not for so much as half a heartbeat.
They will not be alone. Her cousins will be with them.

As will you. I command it, in the kings name. Cersei had not wanted Tommen and his wife
to share a bed at all, but the Tyrells had insisted. Husband and wife should sleep together, the
Queen of Thorns had said, even if they do no more than sleep. His Graces bed is big enough
for two, surely. Lady Alerie had echoed her good-mother. Let the children warm each other in
the night. It will bring them closer. Margaery oft shares her blankets with her cousins. They sing
and play games and whisper secrets to each other when the candles are snuffed out.
How delightful, Cersei had said. Let them continue, by all means. In the Maidenvault.
I am sure Her Grace knows best, Lady Olenna had said to Lady Alerie. She is the boys own
mother, after all, of that we are all sure. And surely we can agree about the wedding night? A
man should not sleep apart from his wife on the night of their wedding. It is ill luck for their
marriage if they do.
Someday I will teach you the meaning of ill luck, the queen had vowed. Margaery may
share Tommens bedchamber for that one night, she had been forced to say. No longer.
Your Grace is so gracious, the Queen of Thorns had replied, and everyone had exchanged
smiles.
Cerseis fingers were digging into Jaimes arm hard enough to leave bruises. I need eyes inside
that room, she said.
To see what? he said. There can be no danger of a consummation. Tommen is much too
young.
And Ossifer Plumm was much too dead, but that did not stop him fathering a child, did it?
Her brother looked lost. Who was Ossifer Plumm? Was he Lord Philips father, or... who?
He is near as ignorant as Robert. All his wits were in his sword hand. Forget Plumm, just
remember what I told you. Swear to me that you will stay by Tommens side until the sun comes
up.
As you command, he said, as if her fears were groundless. Do you still mean to go ahead
and burn the Tower of the Hand?
After the feast. It was the only part of the days festivities that Cersei thought she might
enjoy. Our lord father was murdered in that tower. I cannot bear to look at it. If the gods are
good, the fire may smoke a few rats from the rubble.
Jaime rolled his eyes. Tyrion, you mean.
Him, and Lord Varys, and this gaoler.
If any of them were hiding in the tower, we would have found them. Ive had a small army
going at it with picks and hammers. Weve knocked through walls and ripped up floors and
uncovered half a hundred secret passages.
And for all you know there may be half a hundred more. Some of the secret crawlways had
turned out to be so small that Jaime had needed pages and stableboys to explore them. A passage
to the black cells had been found, and a stone well that seemed to have no bottom. They had
found a chamber full of skulls and yellowed bones, and four sacks of tarnished silver coins from
the reign of the first King Viserys. They had found a thousand rats as well... but neither Tyrion
nor Varys had been amongst them, and Jaime had finally insisted on putting an end to the search.

One boy had gotten stuck in a narrow passage and had to be pulled out by his feet, shrieking.
Another fell down a shaft and broke his legs. And two guardsmen vanished exploring a side
tunnel. Some of the other guards swore they could hear them calling faintly through the stone,
but when Jaimes men tore down the wall they found only earth and rubble on the far side. The
Imp is small and cunning. He may still be in the walls. If he is, the fire will smoke him out.
Even if Tyrion were still hiding in the castle, he wont be in the Tower of the Hand. Weve
reduced it to a shell.
Would that we could do the same to the rest of this foul castle, said Cersei. After the war I
mean to build a new palace beyond the river. She had dreamed of it the night before last, a
magnificent white castle surrounded by woods and gardens, long leagues from the stinks and
noise of Kings Landing. This city is a cesspit. For half a groat I would move the court to
Lannisport and rule the realm from Casterly Rock.
That would be an even greater folly than burning the Tower of the Hand. So long as Tommen
sits the Iron Throne, the realm sees him as the true king. Hide him under the Rock and he
becomes just another claimant to the throne, no different than Stannis.
I am aware of that, the queen said sharply. I said that I wanted to move the court to
Lannisport, not that I would. Were you always this slow, or did losing a hand make you stupid?
Jaime ignored that. If these flames spread beyond the tower, you may end up burning down the
castle whether you mean to or not. Wildfire is treacherous.
Lord Hallyne has assured me that his pyromancers can control the fire. The Guild of
Alchemists had been brewing fresh wildfire for a fortnight. Let all of Kings Landing see the
flames. It will be a lesson to our enemies.
Now you sound like Aerys.
Her nostrils flared. Guard your tongue, ser.
I love you too, sweet sister.
How could I ever have loved that wretched creature? she wondered after he had gone. He was
your twin, your shadow, your other half, another voice whispered. Once, perhaps, she thought.
No longer. He has become a stranger to me.
Compared to the magnificence of Joffreys nuptials, the wedding of King Tommen was a
modest affair, and small. No one wanted another lavish ceremony, least of all the queen, and no
one wanted to pay for one, least of all the Tyrells. So the young king took Margaery Tyrell to
wife in the Red Keeps royal sept, with fewer than a hundred guests looking on in place of the
thousands who had seen his brother joined to the same woman.
The bride was fair and gay and beautiful, the groom still baby-faced and plump. He recited his
vows in a high, childish voice, promising his love and devotion to Mace Tyrells twice-widowed
daughter. Margaery wore the same gown she had worn to marry Joffrey, an airy confection of
sheer ivory silk, Myrish lace, and seed pearls. Cersei herself was still in black, as a sign of
mourning for her murdered firstborn. His widow might be pleased to laugh and drink and dance
and put all memory of Joff aside, but his mother would not forget him so easily.

This is wrong, she thought. It is too soon. A year, two years, that would have been time enough.
Highgarden should have been content with a betrothal. Cersei stared back to where Mace Tyrell
stood between his wife and mother. You forced me into this travesty of a wedding, my lord, and
I shall not soon forget it.
When it was time for the changing of the cloaks, the bride sank gracefully to her knees and
Tommen covered her with the heavy cloth-of-gold monstrosity that Robert had cloaked Cersei in
on their own wedding day, with the crowned stag of Baratheon worked upon its back in beads of
onyx. Cersei had wanted to use the fine red silk cloak Joffrey had used. It was the cloak my lord
father used when he wed my lady mother, she explained to the Tyrells, but the Queen of Thorns
had balked her in that as well. That old thing? the crone had said. It looks a bit threadbare to
me... and dare I say, unlucky? And wouldnt a stag be more fitting for King Roberts trueborn
son? In my day a bride donned her husbands colors, not his lady mothers.
Thanks to Stannis and his filthy letter, there were already too many rumors concerning
Tommens parentage. Cersei dared not fan the fires by insisting that he drape his bride in
Lannister crimson, so she yielded as gracefully as she could. But the sight of all that gold and
onyx still filled her with resentment. The more we give these Tyrells, the more they demand of
us.
When all the vows were spoken, the king and his new queen stepped outside the sept to accept
congratulations. Westeros has two queens now, and the young one is as beautiful as the old
one, boomed Lyle Crakehall, an oaf of a knight who oft reminded Cersei of her late and
unlamented husband. She could have slapped him. Gyles Rosby made to kiss her hand, and only
succeeded in coughing on her fingers. Lord Redwyne kissed her on one cheek and Mace Tyrell
on both. Grand Maester Pycelle told Cersei that she had not lost a son, but rather gained a
daughter. At least she was spared Lady Tandas tearful embraces. None of the Stokeworth
women had appeared, and for that much the queen was grateful.
Amongst the last was Kevan Lannister. I understand you mean to leave us for another
wedding, the queen said to him.
Hardstone has cleared the broken men from Darry castle, he replied. Lancels bride awaits
us there.
Will your lady wife be joining you for the nuptials?
The riverlands are still too dangerous. Vargo Hoats scum remain abroad, and Beric
Dondarrion has been hanging Freys. Is it true that Sandor Clegane has joined him?
How does he know that? Some say. Reports are confused. The bird had come last night, from
a septry on an island hard by the mouth of the Trident. The nearby town of Saltpans had been
savagely raided by a band of outlaws, and some of the survivors claimed a roaring brute in a
hounds head helm was amongst the raiders. Supposedly hed killed a dozen men and raped a
girl of twelve. No doubt Lancel will be eager to hunt down Clegane and Lord Beric both, to
restore the kings peace to the riverlands.
Ser Kevan stared into her eyes for a moment. My son is not the man to deal with Sandor
Clegane.

We agree on that much, at least. His father might be.
Her uncles mouth grew hard. If my service is not required at the Rock...
Your service was required here. Cersei had named her cousin Damion Lannister her castellan
for the Rock, and another cousin, Ser Daven Lannister, the Warden of the West. Insolence has its
price, Uncle. Bring us Sandors head, and I know His Grace will be most grateful. Joff may
have liked the man, but Tommen was always afraid of him... with good reason, it would seem.
When a dog goes bad, the fault lies with his master, Ser Kevan said. Then he turned and
walked away.
Jaime escorted her to the Small Hall, where the feast was being readied. I blame you for all
this, she whispered as they walked. Let them wed, you said. Margaery should be mourning
Joffrey, not marrying his brother. She should be as sick with grief as I am. I do not believe she is
a maid. Renly had a cock, didnt he? He was Roberts brother, he surely had a cock. If that
disgusting old crone thinks that I will allow my son to
You will be rid of Lady Olenna soon enough, Jaime broke in quietly. Shes returning to
Highgarden on the morrow.
So she says. Cersei did not trust any Tyrell promise.
Shes leaving, he insisted. Mace is taking half the Tyrell strength to Storms End, and the
other half will be going back to the Reach with Ser Garlan to make good his claim on
Brightwater. A few more days, and the only roses left in Kings Landing will be Margaery and
her ladies and a few guardsmen.
And Ser Loras. Or have you forgotten your Sworn Brother?
Ser Loras is a knight of the Kingsguard.
Ser Loras is so Tyrell he pisses rosewater. He should never have been given a white cloak.
He would not have been my choice, Ill grant you. No one troubled to consult me. Loras will
do well enough, I think. Once a man puts on that cloak, it changes him.
It certainly changed you, and not for the better.
I love you too, sweet sister. He held the door for her, and walked her to the high table and her
seat beside the king. Margaery was on the other side of Tommen, in the place of honor. When
she entered, arm in arm with the little king, she made a point of stopping to kiss Cersei on the
cheeks and throw her arms around her. Your Grace, the girl said, bold as polished brass, I feel
as though I have a second mother now. I pray that we shall be very close, united by our love for
your sweet son.
I loved both my sons.
Joffrey is in my prayers as well, said Margaery. I loved him dearly, though I never had the
chance to know him.
Liar, the queen thought. If you had loved him even for an instant, you would not have been in
such unseemly haste to wed his brother. His crown was all you ever wanted. For half a groat she
would have slapped the blushing bride right there upon the dais, in view of half the court.
Like the service, the wedding feast was modest. Lady Alerie had made all the arrangements;
Cersei had not had the stomach to face that daunting task again, after the way Joffreys wedding

had ended. Only seven courses were served. Butterbumps and Moon Boy entertained the guests
between dishes, and musicians played as they ate. They listened to pipers and fiddlers, a lute and
a flute, a high harp. The only singer was some favorite of Lady Margaerys, a dashing young
cock-a-whoop clad all in shades of azure who called himself the Blue Bard. He sang a few love
songs and retired. What a disappointment, Lady Olenna complained loudly. I was hoping for
The Rains of Castamere.
Whenever Cersei looked at the old crone, the face of Maggy the Frog seemed to float before her
eyes, wrinkled and terrible and wise. All old women look alike, she tried to tell herself, thats all
it is. In truth, the bent-back sorceress had looked nothing like the Queen of Thorns, yet somehow
the sight of Lady Olennas nasty little smile was enough to put her back in Maggys tent again.
She could still remember the smell of it, redolent with queer eastern spices, and the softness of
Maggys gums as she sucked the blood from Cerseis finger. Queen you shall be, the old woman
had promised, with her lips still wet and red and glistening, until there comes another, younger
and more beautiful, to cast you down and take all that you hold dear.
Cersei glanced past Tommen, to where Margaery sat laughing with her father. She is pretty
enough, she had to admit, but most of that is youth. Even peasant girls are pretty at a certain age,
when they are still fresh and innocent and unspoiled, and most of them have the same brown hair
and brown eyes as she does. Only a fool would ever claim she was more beautiful than I. The
world was full of fools, however. So was her sons court.
Her mood was not improved when Mace Tyrell arose to lead the toasts. He raised a golden
goblet high, smiling at his pretty little daughter, and in a booming voice said, To the king and
queen! The other sheep all baaaaaaed along with him. The king and queen! they cried,
smashing their cups together. The king and queen! She had no choice but to drink along with
them, all the time wishing that the guests had but a single face, so she could throw her wine into
their eyes and remind them that she was the true queen. The only one of Tyrells lickspittles who
seemed to remember her at all was Paxter Redwyne, who rose to make his own toast, swaying
slightly. To both our queens! he chirruped. To the young queen and the old!
Cersei drank several cups of wine and pushed her food around a golden plate. Jaime ate even
less, and seldom deigned to occupy his seat upon the dais. He is as anxious as I am, the queen
realized as she watched him prowl the hall, twitching aside the tapestries with his good hand to
assure himself that no one was hiding behind them. There were Lannister spearmen posted
around the building, she knew. Ser Osmund Kettleblack guarded one door, Ser Meryn Trant the
other. Balon Swann stood behind the kings chair, Loras Tyrell behind the queens. No swords
had been allowed inside the feast save for those the white knights bore.
My son is safe, Cersei told herself. No harm can come to him, not here, not now. Yet every time
she looked at Tommen, she saw Joffrey clawing at his throat. And when the boy began to cough
the queens heart stopped beating for a moment. She knocked aside a serving girl in her haste to
reach him.

Only a little wine that went down the wrong way, Margaery Tyrell assured her, smiling. She
took Tommens hand in her own and kissed his fingers. My little love needs to take smaller
sips. See, you scared your lady mother half to death.
Im sorry, Mother, Tommen said, abashed.
It was more than Cersei could stand. I cannot let them see me cry, she thought, when she felt
the tears welling in her eyes. She walked past Ser Meryn Trant and out into the back passage.
Alone beneath a tallow candle, she allowed herself a shuddering sob, then another. A woman
may weep, but not a queen.
Your Grace? said a voice behind her. Do I intrude?
It was a womans voice, flavored with the accents of the east. For an instant she feared that
Maggy the Frog was speaking to her from the grave. But it was only Merryweathers wife, the
sloe-eyed beauty Lord Orton had wed during his exile and fetched home with him to Longtable.
The Small Hall is so stuffy, Cersei heard herself say. The smoke was making my eyes water.
And mine, Your Grace. Lady Merryweather was as tall as the queen, but dark instead of fair,
raven-haired and olive-skinned and younger by a decade. She offered the queen a pale blue
handkerchief of silk and lace. I have a son as well. I know that I shall weep rivers on the day he
weds.
Cersei wiped her cheeks, furious that she had let her tears be seen. My thanks, she said stiffly.
Your Grace, I... The Myrish woman lowered her voice. There is something you must know.
Your maid is bought and paid for. She tells Lady Margaery everything you do.
Senelle? Sudden fury twisted in the queens belly. Was there no one she could trust? You
are certain of this?
Have her followed. Margaery never meets with her directly. Her cousins are her ravens, they
bring her messages. Sometimes Elinor, sometimes Alla, sometimes Megga. All of them are as
close to Margaery as sisters. They meet in the sept and pretend to pray. Put your own man in the
gallery on the morrow, and he will see Senelle whispering to Megga beneath the altar of the
Maiden.
If this is true, why tell me? You are one of Margaerys companions. Why would you betray
her? Cersei had learned suspicion at her fathers knee; this could well be some trap, a lie meant
to sow discord between the lion and the rose.
Longtable may be sworn to Highgarden, the woman replied, with a toss of her black hair,
but I am of Myr, and my loyalty is to my husband and my son. I want all that is best for them.
I see. In the closeness of the passage, the queen could smell the other womans perfume, a
musky scent that spoke of moss and earth and wildflowers. Under it, she smelled ambition. She
gave testimony at Tyrions trial, Cersei recalled suddenly. She saw the Imp put the poison in
Joffs cup and was not afraid to say so. I shall look into this, she promised. If what you say is
true, you will be rewarded. And if youve lied to me, Ill have your tongue, and your lord
husbands lands and gold as well.
Your Grace is kind. And beautiful. Lady Merryweather smiled. Her teeth were white, her lips
full and dark.

When the queen returned to the Small Hall, she found her brother pacing restlessly. It was only
a gulp of wine that went down the wrong way. Though it startled me as well.
My belly is such a knot that I cannot eat, she growled at him. The wine tastes of bile. This
wedding was a mistake.
This wedding was necessary. The boy is safe.
Fool. No one who wears a crown is ever safe. She looked about the hall. Mace Tyrell laughed
amongst his knights. Lords Redwyne and Rowan were talking furtively. Ser Kevan sat brooding
over his wine at the back of the hall, whilst Lancel whispered something to a septon. Senelle was
moving down the table, filling the cups of the brides cousins with wine as red as blood. Grand
Maester Pycelle had fallen asleep. There is no one I can rely upon, not even Jaime, she realized
grimly. I will need to sweep them all away and surround the king with mine own people.
Later, after sweets and nuts and cheese had been served and cleared away, Margaery and
Tommen began the dancing, looking more than a bit ridiculous as they whirled about the floor.
The Tyrell girl stood a good foot and a half taller than her little husband, and Tommen was a
clumsy dancer at best, with none of Joffreys easy grace. He did his earnest best, though, and
seemed oblivious to the spectacle he was making of himself. And no sooner was Maid Margaery
done with him than her cousins swooped in, one after the other, insisting that His Grace must
dance with them as well. They will have him stumbling and shuffling like a fool by the time
theyre done, Cersei thought resentfully as she watched. Half the court will be laughing at him
behind his back.
Whilst Alla, Elinor, and Megga took their turns with Tommen, Margaery took a turn around the
floor with her father, then another with her brother Loras. The Knight of Flowers was in white
silk, with a belt of golden roses about his waist and a jade rose fastening his cloak. They could be
twins, Cersei thought as she watched them. Ser Loras was a year older than his sister, but they
had the same big brown eyes, the same thick brown hair falling in lazy ringlets to their shoulders,
the same smooth unblemished skin. A ripe crop of pimples would teach them some humility.
Loras was taller and had a few wisps of soft brown fuzz on his face, and Margaery had a
womans shape, but elsewise they were more alike than she and Jaime. That annoyed her too.
Her own twin interrupted her musings. Would Your Grace honor her white knight with a
dance?
She gave him a withering look. And have you fumbling at me with that stump? No. I will let
you fill my wine cup for me, though. If you think you can manage it without spilling.
A cripple like me? Not likely. He moved away and made another circuit of the hall. She had
to fill her own cup.
Cersei refused Mace Tyrell as well, and later Lancel. The others took the hint, and no one else
approached her. Our fast friends and loyal lords. She could not even trust the westermen, her
fathers sworn swords and bannermen. Not if her own uncle was conspiring with her enemies...
Margaery was dancing with her cousin Alla, Megga with Ser Tallad the Tall. The other cousin,
Elinor, was sharing a cup of wine with the handsome young Bastard of Driftmark, Aurane
Waters. It was not the first time the queen had made note of Waters, a lean young man with grey-

green eyes and long silver-gold hair. The first time she had seen him, for half a heartbeat she had
almost thought Rhaegar Targaryen had returned from the ashes. It is his hair, she told herself. He
is not half as comely as Rhaegar was. His face is too narrow, and he has that cleft in his chin.
The Velaryons came from old Valyrian stock, however, and some had the same silvery hair as
the dragonkings of old.
Tommen returned to his seat to nibble at an applecake. Her uncles place was empty. The queen
finally found him in a corner, talking intently with Mace Tyrells son Garlan. What do they have
to talk about? The Reach might call Ser Garlan gallant, but she trusted him no more than
Margaery or Loras. She had not forgotten the gold coin that Qyburn had discovered beneath the
gaolers chamber pot. A golden hand from Highgarden. And Margaery is spying on me. When
Senelle appeared to fill her wine cup, the queen had to resist an urge to take her by the throat and
throttle her. Do not presume to smile at me, you treacherous little bitch. You will be begging me
for mercy before Im done with you.
I think Her Grace has had enough wine for one night, she heard her brother Jaime say.
No, the queen thought. All the wine in the world would not be enough to see me through this
wedding. She rose so fast she almost fell. Jaime caught her by the arm and steadied her. She
wrenched free and clapped her hands together. The music died, the voices stilled. Lords and
ladies, Cersei called out loudly, if you will be so good as to come outside with me, we shall
light a candle to celebrate the union of Highgarden and Casterly Rock, and a new age of peace
and plenty for our Seven Kingdoms.
Dark and forlorn stood the Tower of the Hand, with only gaping holes where oaken doors and
shuttered windows had once been. Yet even ruined and slighted, it loomed above the outer ward.
As the wedding guests filed out of the Small Hall, they passed beneath its shadow. When Cersei
looked up she saw the towers crenellated battlements gnawing at a hunters moon, and
wondered for a moment how many Hands of how many kings had made their home there over
the past three centuries.
A hundred yards from the tower, she took a breath to stop her head from spinning. Lord
Hallyne! You may commence.
Hallyne the pyromancer said Hmmmmmm and waved the torch he was holding, and the
archers on the walls bent their bows and sent a dozen flaming arrows through the gaping
windows.
The tower went up with a whoosh. In half a heartbeat its interior was alive with light, red,
yellow, orange... and green, an ominous dark green, the color of bile and jade and pyromancers
piss. The substance, the alchemists named it, but common folk called it wildfire. Fifty pots had
been placed inside the Tower of the Hand, along with logs and casks of pitch and the greater part
of the worldly possessions of a dwarf named Tyrion Lannister.
The queen could feel the heat of those green flames. The pyromancers said that only three
things burned hotter than their substance: dragonflame, the fires beneath the earth, and the
summer sun. Some of the ladies gasped when the first flames appeared in the windows, licking
up the outer walls like long green tongues. Others cheered, and made toasts.

It is beautiful, she thought, as beautiful as Joffrey, when they laid him in my arms. No man had
ever made her feel as good as she had felt when he took her nipple in his mouth to nurse.
Tommen stared wide-eyed at the fires, as fascinated as he was frightened, until Margaery
whispered something in his ear that made him laugh. Some of the knights began to make wagers
on how long it would be before the tower collapsed. Lord Hallyne stood humming to himself and
rocking on his heels.
Cersei thought of all the Kings Hands that she had known through the years: Owen
Merryweather, Jon Connington, Qarlton Chelsted, Jon Arryn, Eddard Stark, her brother Tyrion.
And her father, Lord Tywin Lannister, her father most of all. All of them are burning now, she
told herself, savoring the thought. They are dead and burning, every one, with all their plots and
schemes and betrayals. It is my day now. It is my castle and my kingdom.
The Tower of the Hand gave out a sudden groan, so loud that all the conversation stopped
abruptly. Stone cracked and split, and part of the upper battlements fell away and landed with a
crash that shook the hill, sending up a cloud of dust and smoke. As fresh air rushed in through
the broken masonry, the fire surged upward. Green flames leapt into the sky and whirled around
each other. Tommen shied away, till Margaery took his hand and said, Look, the flames are
dancing. Just as we did, my love.
They are. His voice was filled with wonder. Mother, look, theyre dancing.
I see them. Lord Hallyne, how long will the fires burn?
All night, Your Grace.
It makes a pretty candle, I grant you, said Lady Olenna Tyrell, leaning on her cane between
Left and Right. Bright enough to see us safe to sleep, I think. Old bones grow weary, and these
young ones have had enough excitement for one night. It is time the king and queen were put to
bed.
Yes. Cersei beckoned to Jaime. Lord Commander, escort His Grace and his little queen to
their pillows, if you would.
As you command. And you as well?
No need. Cersei felt too alive for sleep. The wildfire was cleansing her, burning away all her
rage and fear, filling her with resolve. The flames are so pretty. I want to watch them for a
while.
Jaime hesitated. You should not stay alone.
I will not be alone. Ser Osmund can remain with me and keep me safe. Your Sworn Brother.
If it please Your Grace, said Kettleblack.
It does. Cersei slid her arm through his, and side by side they watched the fire rage.

THE SOILED KNIGHT
The night was unseasonably cool, even for autumn. A brisk wet wind was swirling down
the alleys, stirring up the days dust. A north wind, and full of chill. Ser Arys Oakheart pulled up
his hood to cover his face. It would not do for him to be recognized. A fortnight past, a trader
had been butchered in the shadow city, a harmless man whod come to Dorne for fruit and found
death instead of dates. His only crime was being from Kings Landing.
The mob would find a sterner foe in me. He would almost have welcomed an attack. His hand
drifted down to brush lightly over the hilt on the longsword that hung half-hidden amongst the
folds of his layered linen robes, the outer with its turquoise stripes and rows of golden suns, and
the lighter orange one beneath. The Dornish garb was comfortable, but his father would have
been aghast had he lived to see his son so dressed. He was a man of the Reach, and the Dornish
were his ancient foes, as the tapestries at Old Oak bore witness. Arys only had to close his eyes
to see them still. Lord Edgerran the Open-Handed, seated in splendor with the heads of a
hundred Dornishmen piled round his feet. The Three Leaves in the Princes Pass, pierced by
Dornish spears, Alester sounding his warhorn with his last breath. Ser Olyvar the Green Oak all
in white, dying at the side of the Young Dragon. Dorne is no fit place for any Oakheart.
Even before Prince Oberyn had died, the knight had been ill at ease whenever he left the
grounds of Sunspear to walk the alleys of the shadow city. He could feel eyes upon him
everywhere he went, small black Dornish eyes regarding him with thinly veiled hostility. The
shopkeepers did their best to cheat him at every turn, and sometimes he wondered whether the
taverners were spitting in his drinks. Once a group of ragged boys began pelting him with stones,
until he drew his sword and ran them off. The Red Vipers death had inflamed the Dornish even
more, though the streets had quieted a bit since Prince Doran had confined the Sand Snakes to a
tower. Even so, to wear his white cloak openly in the shadow city would be asking for attack. He
had brought three with him: two of wool, one light and one heavy, the third of fine white silk. He
felt naked without one hanging from his shoulders.
Better naked than dead, he told himself. I am a Kingsguard still, even uncloaked. She must
respect that. I must make her understand. He should never have let himself be drawn into this,
but the singer said that love can make a fool of any man.
Sunspears shadow city oft seemed deserted in the heat of the day, when only buzzing flies
moved down the dusty streets, but once evening fell the same streets came to life. Ser Arys heard
faint music drifting through louvered windows as he passed below, and somewhere finger drums
were beating out the quick rhythm of a spear dance, giving the night a pulse. Where three alleys
met beneath the second of the Winding Walls, a pillow girl called down from a balcony. She was
dressed in jewels and oil. He took a look at her, hunched his shoulders, and pushed on, into the
teeth of the wind. We men are so weak. Our bodies betray even the noblest of us. He thought of
King Baelor the Blessed, who would fast to the point of fainting to tame the lusts that shamed
him. Must he do the same?

A short man stood in an arched doorway grilling chunks of snake over a brazier, turning them
with wooden tongs as they crisped. The pungent smell of his sauces brought tears to the knights
eyes. The best snake sauce had a drop of venom in it, he had heard, along with mustard seeds and
dragon peppers. Myrcella had taken to Dornish food as quick as she had to her Dornish prince,
and from time to time Ser Arys would try a dish or two to please her. The food seared his mouth
and made him gasp for wine, and burned even worse coming out than it did going in. His little
princess loved it, though.
He had left her in her chambers, bent over a gaming table opposite Prince Trystane, pushing
ornate pieces across squares of jade and carnelian and lapis lazuli. Myrcellas full lips had been
slightly parted, her green eyes narrowed with concentration. Cyvasse, the game was called. It had
come to the Planky Town on a trading galley from Volantis, and the orphans had spread it up and
down the Greenblood. The Dornish court was mad for it.
Ser Arys just found it maddening. There were ten different pieces, each with its own attributes
and powers, and the board would change from game to game, depending on how the players
arrayed their home squares. Prince Trystane had taken to the game at once, and Myrcella had
learned it so she could play with him. She was not quite one-and-ten, her betrothed three-and-
ten; even so, she had been winning more oft than not of late. Trystane did not seem to mind. The
two children could not have looked more different, him with his olive skin and straight black
hair, her pale as milk with a mop of golden curls; light and dark, like Queen Cersei and King
Robert. He prayed Myrcella would find more joy in her Dornish boy than her mother had found
with her storm lord.
It made him feel uneasy to leave her, though she should be safe enough within the castle. There
were only two doors that gave access to Myrcellas chambers in the Tower of the Sun, and Ser
Arys kept two men on each; Lannister household guards, men who had come with them from
Kings Landing, battle-tested, tough, and loyal to the bone. Myrcella had her maids and Septa
Eglantine as well, and Prince Trystane was attended by his sworn shield, Ser Gascoyne of the
Greenblood. No one will trouble her, he told himself, and in a fortnight we shall be safely away.
Prince Doran had promised as much. Though Arys had been shocked to see how aged and
infirm the Dornish prince appeared, he did not doubt the princes word. I am sorry I could not
see you until now, or meet Princess Myrcella, Martell had said when Arys was admitted to his
solar, but I trust that my daughter Arianne has made you welcome here in Dorne, ser.
She has, my prince, hed answered, and prayed that no blush would dare betray him.
Ours is a harsh land, and poor, yet not without its beauties. It grieves us that you have seen no
more of Dorne than Sunspear, but I fear that neither you nor your princess would be safe beyond
these walls. We Dornish are a hot-blooded people, quick to anger and slow to forgive. It would
gladden my heart if I could assure you that the Sand Snakes were alone in wanting war, but I will
not tell you lies, ser. You have heard my smallfolk in the streets, crying out for me to call my
spears. Half my lords agree with them, I fear.
And you, my prince? the knight had dared to ask.

My mother taught me long ago that only madmen fight wars they cannot win. If the bluntness
of the question had offended him, Prince Doran hid it well. Yet this peace is fragile... as fragile
as your princess.
Only a beast would harm a little girl.
My sister Elia had a little girl as well. Her name was Rhaenys. She was a princess too. The
prince sighed. Those who would plunge a knife into Princess Myrcella do not bear her any
malice, no more than Ser Amory Lorch did when he killed Rhaenys, if indeed he did. They seek
only to force my hand. For if Myrcella should be slain in Dorne whilst under my protection, who
would believe my denials?
No one shall ever harm Myrcella whilst I live.
A noble vow, said Doran Martell with a faint smile, but you are only one man, ser. I had
hoped that imprisoning my headstrong nieces would help to calm the waters, but all weve done
is drive the roaches back beneath the rushes. Every night I hear them whispering and sharpening
their knives.
He is afraid, Ser Arys realized then. Look, his hand is shaking. The Prince of Dorne is terrified.
Words failed him.
My apologies, ser, Prince Doran said. I am frail and failing, and sometimes... Sunspear
wearies me, with its noise and dirt and smells. As soon as my duty allows, I mean to return to the
Water Gardens. When I do I shall take Princess Myrcella with me. Before the knight could
protest, the prince raised a hand, its knuckles red and swollen. You shall go as well. And her
septa, her maids, her guards. Sunspears walls are strong, but beneath them is the shadow city.
Even within the castle hundreds come and go each day. The Gardens are my haven. Prince
Maron raised them as a gift for his Targaryen bride, to mark Dornes marriage to the Iron
Throne. Autumn is a lovely season there... hot days, cool nights, the salt breeze off the sea, the
fountains and the pools. And there are other children, boys and girls of high and gentle birth.
Myrcella will have friends of her own age to play with. She will not be lonely.
As you say. The princes words pounded in his head. She will be safe there. Only why had
Doran Martell urged him not to write Kings Landing about the move? Myrcella will be safest if
no one knows just where she is. Ser Arys had agreed, but what choice did he have? He was a
knight of the Kingsguard, but only one man for all that, just as the prince had said.
The alley opened suddenly onto a moonlit courtyard. Past the candlemakers shop, she wrote, a
gate and a short flight of exterior steps. He pushed through the gate and climbed the worn steps
to an unmarked door. Should I knock? He pushed the door open instead, and found himself in a
large, dim room with a low ceiling, lit by a pair of scented candles that flickered in niches cut
from the thick earthen walls. He saw patterned Myrish carpets underneath his sandals, a tapestry
upon one wall, a bed. My lady? he called. Where are you?
Here. She stepped out from the shadow behind the door.
An ornate snake coiled around her right forearm, its copper and gold scales glimmering when
she moved. It was all she wore.

No, he meant to tell her, I only came to tell you I must go, but when he saw her shining in the
candlelight he seemed to lose the power of speech. His throat felt as dry as the Dornish sands.
Silent he stood, drinking in the glories of her body, the hollow of her throat, the round ripe
breasts with their huge dark nipples, the lush curves at waist and hip. And then somehow he was
holding her, and she was pulling off his robes. When she reached his undertunic she seized it by
the shoulders and ripped the silk down to his navel, but Arys was past caring. Her skin was
smooth beneath his fingers, as warm to the touch as sand baked by the Dornish sun. He raised
her head and found her lips. Her mouth opened under his, and her breasts filled his hands. He felt
her nipples stiffen as his thumbs brushed over them. Her hair was black and thick and smelled of
orchids, a dark and earthy smell that made him so hard it almost hurt.
Touch me, ser, the woman whispered in his ear. His hand slipped down her rounded belly to
find the sweet wet place beneath the thicket of black hair. Yes, there, she murmured as he
slipped a finger up inside her. She made a whimpering sound, drew him to the bed, and pushed
him down. More, oh more, yes, sweet, my knight, my knight, my sweet white knight, yes you,
you, I want you. Her hands guided him inside her, then slipped around his back to pull him
closer. Deeper, she whispered. Yes, oh. When she wrapped her legs around him, they felt as
strong as steel. Her nails raked his back as he drove into her, again and again and again, until she
screamed and arched her back beneath him. As she did, her fingers found his nipples, pinching
till he spent his seed within her. I could die now, happy, the knight thought, and for a dozen
heartbeats at least he was at peace.
He did not die.
His desire was as deep and boundless as the sea, but when the tide receded, the rocks of shame
and guilt thrust up as sharp as ever. Sometimes the waves would cover them, but they remained
beneath the waters, hard and black and slimy. What am I doing? he asked himself. I am a knight
of the Kingsguard. He rolled off of her to sprawl staring at the ceiling. A great crack ran across
it, from one wall to the other. He had not noticed that before, no more than he had noticed the
picture on the tapestry, a scene of Nymeria and her ten thousand ships. I see only her. A dragon
might have been peering in the window, and I would never have seen anything but her breasts,
her face, her smile.
There is wine, she murmured against his neck. She slid a hand across his chest. Are you
thirsty?
No. He rolled away, and sat on the edge of the bed. The room was hot, and yet he shivered.
You bleed, she said. I scratched too hard.
When she touched his back, he flinched as if her fingers were afire. Dont. Naked, he stood.
No more.
I have balm. For the scratches.
But none for my shame. The scratches are nothing. Forgive me, my lady, I must go...
So soon? She had a husky voice, a wide mouth made for whispers, full lips ripe for kissing.
Her hair tumbled down across her bare shoulders to the tops of her full breasts, black and thick.

It curled in big soft lazy ringlets. Even the hair upon her mound was soft and curly. Stay with
me tonight, ser. I still have much to teach you.
I have learned too much from you already.
You seemed glad enough for the lessons at the time, ser. Are you certain you are not off to
some other bed, some other woman? Tell me who she is. I will fight her for you, bare-breasted,
knife to knife. She smiled. Unless she is a Sand Snake. If so, we can share you. I love my
cousins well.
You know I have no other woman. Only... duty.
She rolled onto one elbow to look up at him, her big black eyes shining in the candlelight. That
poxy bitch? I know her. Dry as dust between the legs, and her kisses leave you bleeding. Let
duty sleep alone for once, and stay with me tonight.
My place is at the palace.
She sighed. With your other princess. You will make me jealous. I think you love her more
than me. The maid is much too young for you. You need a woman, not a little girl, but I can play
the innocent if that excites you.
You should not say such things. Remember, she is Dornish. In the Reach men said it was the
food that made Dornishmen so hot-tempered and their women so wild and wanton. Fiery peppers
and strange spices heat the blood, she cannot help herself. I love Myrcella as a daughter. He
could never have a daughter of his own, no more than he could have a wife. He had a fine white
cloak instead. We are going to the Water Gardens.
Eventually, she agreed, though with my father, everything takes four times as long as it
should. If he says he means to leave upon the morrow, you will certainly set out within a
fortnight. You will be lonely in the Gardens, I promise you. And where is the brave young
gallant who said he wished to spend the rest of his life in my arms?
I was drunk when I said that.
Youd had three cups of watered wine.
I was drunk on you. It had been ten years since... I never touched a woman until you, not since
I took the white. I never knew what love could be, yet now... I am afraid.
What would frighten my white knight?
I fear for my honor, he said, and for yours.
I can tend to my own honor. She touched a finger to her breast, drawing it slowly round her
nipple. And to my own pleasures, if need be. I am a woman grown.
She was that, beyond a doubt. Seeing her there upon the featherbed, smiling that wicked smile,
toying with her breast... was there ever a woman with nipples so large or so responsive? He
could hardly look at them without wanting to grab them, to suckle them until they were hard and
wet and shiny...
He looked away. His smallclothes were strewn on the carpets. The knight bent to pick them up.
Your hands are shaking, she pointed out. They would sooner be caressing me, I think. Must
you be in such haste to don your clothes, ser? I prefer you as you are. Abed, unclad, we are our
truest selves, a man and a woman, lovers, one flesh, as close as two can be. Our clothes make us

different people. I would sooner be flesh and blood than silks and jewels, and you... you are not
your white cloak, ser.
I am, Ser Arys said. I am my cloak. And this must end, for your sake as well as mine. If we
should be discovered...
Men will think you fortunate.
Men will think me an oathbreaker. What if someone were to go to your father and tell him
how Id dishonored you?
My father is many things, but no one has ever said he was a fool. The Bastard of Godsgrace
had my maidenhead when we were both fourteen. Do you know what my father did when he
learned of it? She gathered the bedclothes in her fist and pulled them up under her chin, to hide
her nakedness. Nothing. My father is very good at doing nothing. He calls it thinking. Tell me
true, ser, is it my dishonor that concerns you, or your own?
Both. Her accusation stung. That is why this must be our last time.
So you have said before.
I did, and meant it too. But I am weak, else I would not be here now. He could not tell her that;
she was the sort of woman who despised weakness, he could sense that. She has more of her
uncle in her than her father. He turned away and found his striped silk undertunic on a chair. She
had ripped the fabric to the navel when she pulled it down over his arms. This is ruined, he
complained. How can I wear it now?
Backwards, she suggested. Once you don your robes, no one will see the tear. Perhaps your
little princess will sew it up for you. Or shall I send a new one to the Water Gardens?
Send me no gifts. That would only draw attention. He shook out the undertunic and pulled it
over his head, backwards. The silk felt cool against his skin, though it clung to his back where
shed scratched him. It would serve to get him back to the palace, at the least. All I want is to
end this... this...
Is that gallant, ser? You hurt me. I begin to think that all your words of love were lies.
I could never lie to you. Ser Arys felt as if shed slapped him. Why else would I have forsaken
all my honor, but for love? When I am with you I... I can scarcely think, you are all I ever dreamt
of, but...
Words are wind. If you love me, do not leave me.
I swore a vow...
... not to wed or father children. Well, I have drunk my moon tea, and you know I cannot
marry you. She smiled. Though I might be persuaded to keep you for my paramour.
Now you mock me.
Perhaps a little. Do you think you are the only Kingsguard who ever loved a woman?
There have always been men who found it easier to speak vows than to keep them, he
admitted. Ser Boros Blount was no stranger to the Street of Silk, and Ser Preston Greenfield used
to call at a certain drapers house whenever the draper was away, but Arys would not shame his
Sworn Brothers by speaking of their failings. Ser Terrence Toyne was found abed with his

kings mistress, he said instead. Twas love, he swore, but it cost his life and hers, and brought
about the downfall of his House and the death of the noblest knight who ever lived.
Yes, and what of Lucamore the Lusty, with his three wives and sixteen children? The song
always makes me laugh.
The truth is not so funny. He was never called Lucamore the Lusty whilst he lived. His name
was Ser Lucamore Strong, and his whole life was a lie. When his deceit was discovered, his own
Sworn Brothers gelded him, and the Old King sent him to the Wall. Those sixteen children were
left weeping. He was no true knight, no more than Terrence Toyne...
And the Dragonknight? She flung the bedclothes aside and swung her legs to the floor. The
noblest knight who ever lived, you said, and he took his queen to bed and got her with child.
I will not believe that, he said, offended. The tale of Prince Aemons treason with Queen
Naerys was only that, a tale, a lie his brother told when he wished to set his trueborn son aside in
favor of his bastard. Aegon was not called the Unworthy without cause. He found his swordbelt
and buckled it around his waist. Though it looked queer against the silken Dornish undertunic,
the familiar weight of longsword and dagger reminded him of who and what he was. I will not
be remembered as Ser Arys the Unworthy, he declared. I will not soil my cloak.
Yes, she said, that fine white cloak. You forget, my great-uncle wore the same cloak. He
died when I was little, yet I still remember him. He was as tall as a tower and used to tickle me
until I could not breathe for laughing.
I never had the honor to know Prince Lewyn, Ser Arys said, but all agree that he was a great
knight.
A great knight with a paramour. She is an old woman now, but she was a rare beauty in her
youth, men say.
Prince Lewyn? That tale Ser Arys had not heard. It shocked him. Terrence Toynes treason and
the deceits of Lucamore the Lusty were recorded in the White Book, but there was no hint of a
woman on Prince Lewyns page.
My uncle always said that it was the sword in a mans hand that determined his worth, not the
one between his legs, she went on, so spare me all your pious talk of soiled cloaks. It is not our
love that has dishonored you, it is the monsters you have served and the brutes youve called
your brothers.
That cut too close to the bone. Robert was no monster.
He climbed onto his throne over the corpses of children, she said, though I will grant you he
was no Joffrey.
Joffrey. He had been a handsome lad, tall and strong for his age, but that was all the good that
could be said of him. It still shamed Ser Arys to remember all the times hed struck that poor
Stark girl at the boys command. When Tyrion had chosen him to go with Myrcella to Dorne, he
lit a candle to the Warrior in thanks. Joffrey is dead, poisoned by the Imp. He would never
have thought the dwarf capable of such enormity. Tommen is king now, and he is not his
brother.
Nor is he his sister.

It was true. Tommen was a good-hearted little man who always tried his best, but the last time
Ser Arys saw him he had been weeping on the quay. Myrcella never shed a tear, though it was
she who was leaving hearth and home to seal an alliance with her maidenhood. The truth was,
the princess was braver than her brother, and brighter and more confident as well. Her wits were
quicker, her courtesies more polished. Nothing ever daunted her, not even Joffrey. The women
are the strong ones, truly. He was thinking not only of Myrcella, but of her mother and his own,
of the Queen of Thorns, of the Red Vipers pretty, deadly Sand Snakes. And of Princess Arianne
Martell, her most of all. I will not say that you are wrong. His voice was hoarse.
Will not? Cannot! Myrcella is more fit for rule...
A son comes before a daughter.
Why? What god has made it so? I am my fathers heir. Should I give up my rights to my
brothers?
You twist my words. I never said... Dorne is different. The Seven Kingdoms have never had a
ruling queen.
The first Viserys intended his daughter Rhaenyra to follow him, do you deny it? But as the
king lay dying the Lord Commander of his Kingsguard decided that it should be otherwise.
Ser Criston Cole. Criston the Kingmaker had set brother against sister and divided the
Kingsguard against itself, bringing on the terrible war the singers named the Dance of the
Dragons. Some claimed he acted from ambition, for Prince Aegon was more tractable than his
willful older sister. Others allowed him nobler motives, and argued that he was defending ancient
Andal custom. A few whispered that Ser Criston had been Princess Rhaenyras lover before he
took the white and wanted vengeance on the woman who had spurned him. The Kingmaker
wrought grave harm, Ser Arys said, and gravely did he pay for it, but...
... but perhaps the Seven sent you here so that one white knight might make right what another
set awry. You do know that when my father returns to the Water Gardens he plans to take
Myrcella with him?
To keep her safe from those who would do her harm.
No. To keep her away from those whod seek to crown her. Prince Oberyn Viper would have
placed the crown upon her head himself if he had lived, but my father lacks the courage. She
got to her feet. You say you love the girl as you would a daughter of your own blood. Would
you let your daughter be despoiled of her rights and locked away in prison?
The Water Gardens are no prison, he protested feebly.
A prison does not have fountains and fig trees, is that what you think? Yet once the girl is
there, she will not be allowed to leave. No more than you will. Hotah will see to that. You do not
know him as I do. He is terrible when aroused.
Ser Arys frowned. The big Norvoshi captain with the scarred face had always made him feel
profoundly uneasy. They say he sleeps with that great axe beside him. What would you have me
do?
No more than you have sworn. Protect Myrcella with your life. Defend her... and her rights.
Set a crown upon her head.

I swore an oath!
To Joffrey, not to Tommen.
Aye, but Tommen is a good-hearted boy. He will be a better king than Joffrey.
But not better than Myrcella. She loves the boy as well. I know she will not let him come to
any harm. Storms End is his by rights, since Lord Renly left no heir and Lord Stannis is
attainted. In time, Casterly Rock will pass to the boy as well, through his lady mother. He will be
as great a lord as any in the realm... but Myrcella by rights should sit the Iron Throne.
The law... I do not know...
I do. When she stood, the long black tangle of her hair fell down to the small of her back.
Aegon the Dragon made the Kingsguard and its vows, but what one king does another can
undo, or change. Formerly the Kingsguard served for life, yet Joffrey dismissed Ser Barristan so
his dog could have a cloak. Myrcella would want you to be happy, and she is fond of me as well.
She will give us leave to marry if we ask. Arianne put her arms around him and laid her face
against his chest. The top of her head came to just beneath his chin. You can have me and your
white cloak both, if that is what you want.
She is tearing me apart. You know I do, but...
I am a princess of Dorne, she said in her husky voice, and it is not meet that you should
make me beg.
Ser Arys could smell the perfume in her hair and feel her heart beating as she pressed against
him. His body was responding to her closeness, and he did not doubt that she could feel it too.
When he put his arms upon her shoulders, he realized she was trembling. Arianne? My
princess? What is it, my love?
Must I say it, ser? I am afraid. You call me love, yet you refuse me, when I have most
desperate need of you. Is it so wrong of me to want a knight to keep me safe?
He had never heard her sound so vulnerable. No, he said, but you have your fathers guards
to keep you safe, why
It is my fathers guards I fear. For a moment she sounded younger than Myrcella. It was my
fathers guards who dragged my sweet cousins off in chains.
Not in chains. I have heard that they have every comfort.
She gave a bitter laugh. Have you seen them? He will not permit me to see them, did you
know that?
They were speaking treason, fomenting war...
Loreza is six, Dorea eight. What wars could they foment? Yet my father has imprisoned them
with their sisters. You have seen him. Fear makes even strong men do things they might never do
otherwise, and my father was never strong. Arys, my heart, hear me for the love you say you
bear me. I have never been as fearless as my cousins, for I was made with weaker seed, but
Tyene and I are of an age and have been close as sisters since we were little girls. We have no
secrets between us. If she can be imprisoned, so can I, and for the same cause... this of
Myrcella.
Your father would never do that.

You do not know my father. I have been disappointing him since I first arrived in this world
without a cock. Half a dozen times he has tried to marry me to toothless greybeards, each more
contemptible than the last. He never commanded me to wed them, I grant you, but the offers
alone prove how little he regards me.
Even so, you are his heir.
Am I?
He left you to rule in Sunspear when he took himself off to his Water Gardens, did he not?
To rule? No. He left his cousin Ser Manfrey as castellan, old blind Ricasso as seneschal, his
bailiffs to collect duties and taxes for his treasurer Alyse Ladybright to count, his shariffs to
police the shadow city, his justiciars to sit in judgment, and Maester Myles to deal with any
letters not requiring the princes own attention. Above them all he placed the Red Viper. My
charge was feasts and frolics, and the entertainment of distinguished guests. Oberyn would visit
the Water Gardens twice a fortnight. Me, he summoned twice a year. I am not the heir my father
wants, he has made that plain. Our laws constrain him, but he would sooner have my brother
follow him, I know it.
Your brother? Ser Arys put his hand beneath her chin and raised her head, the better to look
her in the eyes. You cannot mean Trystane, he is just a boy.
Not Trys. Quentyn. Her eyes were bold and black as sin, unflinching. I have known the truth
since I was four-and-ten, since the day that I went to my fathers solar to give him a good night
kiss, and found him gone. My mother had sent for him, I learned later. Hed left a candle
burning. When I went to blow it out, I found a letter lying incomplete beside it, a letter to my
brother Quentyn, off at Yronwood. My father told Quentyn that he must do all that his maester
and his master-at-arms required of him, because one day you will sit where I sit and rule all
Dorne, and a ruler must be strong of mind and body. A tear crept down Ariannes soft cheek.
My fathers words, written in his own hand. They burned themselves into my memory. I cried
myself to sleep that night, and many nights thereafter.
Ser Arys had yet to meet Quentyn Martell. The prince had been fostered by Lord Yronwood
from a tender age, had served him as a page, then a squire, had even taken knighthood at his
hands in preference to the Red Vipers. If I were a father, I would want my son to follow me as
well, he thought, but he could hear the hurt in her voice, and he knew that if he said what he was
thinking, he would lose her. Perhaps you misunderstood, he said. You were only a child.
Perhaps the prince was only saying that to encourage your brother to be more diligent.
You think so? Then tell me, where is Quentyn now?
The prince is with Lord Yronwoods host in the Boneway, Ser Arys said cautiously. That was
what Sunspears ancient castellan had told him, when first he came to Dorne. The maester with
the silky beard said the same.
Arianne demurred. So my father wishes us to believe, but I have friends who tell me
otherwise. My brother has crossed the narrow sea in secret, posing as a common merchant.
Why?
How would I know? There could be a hundred reasons.

Or one. Are you aware that the Golden Company has broken its contract with Myr?
Sellswords break their contracts all the time.
Not the Golden Company. Our word is good as gold has been their boast since the days of
Bittersteel. Myr is on the point of war with Lys and Tyrosh. Why break a contract that offered
them the prospect of good wages and good plunder?
Perhaps Lys offered them better wages. Or Tyrosh.
No, she said. I would believe it of any of the other free companies, yes. Most of them would
change sides for half a groat. The Golden Company is different. A brotherhood of exiles and the
sons of exiles, united by the dream of Bittersteel. Its home they want, as much as gold. Lord
Yronwood knows that as well as I do. His forebears rode with Bittersteel during three of the
Blackfyre Rebellions. She took Ser Arys by the hand, and wove her fingers through his own.
Have you ever seen the arms of House Toland of Ghost Hill?
He had to think a moment. A dragon eating its own tail?
The dragon is time. It has no beginning and no ending, so all things come round again. Anders
Yronwood is Criston Cole reborn. He whispers in my brothers ear that he should rule after my
father, that it is not right for men to kneel to women... that Arianne especially is unfit to rule,
being the willful wanton that she is. She tossed her hair defiantly. So your two princesses share
a common cause, ser... and they share as well a knight who claims to love them both, but will not
fight for them.
I will. Ser Arys sank to one knee. Myrcella is the elder, and better suited to the crown. Who
will defend her rights if not her Kingsguard? My sword, my life, my honor, all belong to her...
and to you, my hearts delight. I swear, no man will steal your birthright whilst I still have the
strength to lift a sword. I am yours. What would you have of me?
All. She knelt to kiss his lips. All, my love, my true love, my sweet love, and forever. But
first...
Ask, and it is yours.
... Myrcella.

BRIENNE
The stone wall was old and crumbling, but the sight of it across the field made the hairs
on Briennes neck stand up.
That was where the archers hid and slew poor Cleos Frey, she thought... but half a mile farther
on she passed another wall that looked much like the first and found herself uncertain. The rutted
road turned and twisted, and the bare brown trees looked different from the green ones she
remembered. Had she ridden past the place where Ser Jaime had snatched his cousins sword
from its scabbard? Where were the woods theyd fought in? The stream where theyd splashed
and slashed at one another until they drew the Brave Companions down upon them?
My lady? Ser? Podrick never seemed certain what to call her. What are you looking for?
Ghosts. A wall I rode by once. It does not matter. It was when Ser Jaime still had both his
hands. How I loathed him, with all his taunts and smiles. Stay quiet, Podrick. There may still be
outlaws in these woods.
The boy looked at the bare brown trees, the wet leaves, the muddy road ahead. I have a
longsword. I can fight.
Not well enough. Brienne did not doubt the boys courage, only his training. A squire he might
be, in name at least, but the men hed squired for had served him ill.
She had gotten his story out of him in fits and starts on the road from Duskendale. His was a
lesser branch of House Payne, an impoverished offshoot sprouted from the loins of a younger
son. His father had spent his life squiring for richer cousins and had sired Podrick upon a
chandlers daughter hed wed before going off to die in the Greyjoy Rebellion. His mother had
abandoned him with one of those cousins when he was four, so she could run after a wandering
singer who had put another baby in her belly. Podrick did not remember what she looked like.
Ser Cedric Payne had been the nearest thing to a parent the boy had ever known, though from his
stammered stories it seemed to Brienne that cousin Cedric had treated Podrick more like a
servant than a son. When Casterly Rock called its banners, the knight had taken him along to
tend his horse and clean his mail. Then Ser Cedric had been slain in the riverlands whilst fighting
in Lord Tywins host.
Far from home, alone, and penniless, the boy had attached himself to a fat hedge knight named
Ser Lorimer the Belly, who was part of Lord Leffords contingent, charged with protecting the
baggage train. The boys who guard the foodstuffs always eat the best, Ser Lorimer liked to
say, until he was discovered with a salted ham hed stolen from Lord Tywins personal stores.
Tywin Lannister chose to hang him as a lesson to other looters. Podrick had shared the ham and
might have shared the rope as well, but his name had saved him. Ser Kevan Lannister took
charge of him, and sometime later sent the boy to squire for his nephew Tyrion.
Ser Cedric had taught Podrick how to groom a horse and check his shoes for stones, and Ser
Lorimer had taught him how to steal, but neither had given him much training with a sword. The
Imp at least had dispatched him to the Red Keeps master-at-arms when they came to court. But

during the bread riots Ser Aron Santagar had been amongst those slain, and that had been the end
of Podricks training.
Brienne cut two wooden swords from fallen branches to get a sense of Podricks skills. The boy
was slow of speech but not of hand, she was pleased to learn. Though fearless and attentive, he
was also underfed and skinny, and not near strong enough. If he had survived the Battle of the
Blackwater as he claimed, it could only be because no one thought him worth the killing. You
may call yourself a squire, she told him, but Ive seen pages half your age who could have beat
you bloody. If you stay with me, youll go to sleep with blisters on your hands and bruises on
your arms most every night, and youll be so stiff and sore youll hardly sleep. You dont want
that.
I do, the boy insisted. I want that. The bruises and the blisters. I mean, I dont, but I do. Ser.
My lady.
So far he had been true to his word, and Brienne had been true to hers. Podrick had not
complained. Every time he raised a new blister on his sword hand, he felt the need to show it to
her proudly. He took good care of their horses too. He is still no squire, she reminded herself, but
I am no knight, no matter how many times he calls me ser. She would have sent him on his
way, but he had nowhere to go. Besides, though Podrick said he did not know where Sansa Stark
had gone, it might be that he knew more than he realized. Some chance remark, half-
remembered, might hold the key to Briennes quest.
Ser? My lady? Podrick pointed. Theres a cart ahead.
Brienne saw it: a wooden oxcart, two-wheeled and high-sided. A man and a woman were
laboring in the traces, pulling the cart along the ruts toward Maidenpool. Farm folk, by the look
of them. Slowly now, she told the boy. They may take us for outlaws. Say no more than you
must and be courteous.
I will, ser. Be courteous. My lady. The boy seemed almost pleased by the prospect of being
taken for an outlaw.
The farm folk watched them warily as they came trotting up, but once Brienne made it plain
that she meant them no harm, they let her ride beside them. We used to have an ox, the old
man told her as they made their way through the weed-choked fields, lakes of soft mud, and
burnt and blackened trees, but the wolves made off with him. His face was red from the effort
of pulling the cart. They took off our daughter too and had their way with her, but she come
wandering back after the battle down at Duskendale. The ox never did. The wolves ate him, I
expect.
The woman had little to add. She was younger than the man by twenty years, but never spoke a
word, only looked at Brienne the same way she might have looked at a two-headed calf. The
Maid of Tarth had seen such eyes before. Lady Stark had been kind to her, but most women were
just as cruel as men. She could not have said which she found most hurtful, the pretty girls with
their waspish tongues and brittle laughter or the cold-eyed ladies who hid their disdain behind a
mask of courtesy. And common women could be worse than either. Maidenpool was all in ruins
when last I saw it, she said. The gates were broken and half the town was burned.

They rebuilt it some. This Tarly, hes a hard man, but a braver lord than Mooton. Theres still
outlaws in the woods, but not so many as there was. Tarly hunted down the worst o them and
shortened them with that big sword o his. He turned his head and spat. Youve seen no
outlaws on the road?
None. Not this time. The farther they had come from Duskendale, the emptier the road had
been. The only travelers theyd glimpsed had melted away into the woods before they reached
them, save for a big, bearded septon they met walking south with twoscore footsore followers.
Such inns as they passed had either been sacked and abandoned or turned into armed camps.
Yesterday they had encountered one of Lord Randylls patrols, bristling with longbows and
lances. The horsemen had surrounded them while their captain questioned Brienne, but in the
end hed let them continue on their way. Be wary, woman. The next men you meet may not be
as honest as my lads. The Hound has crossed the Trident with a hundred outlaws, and its said
theyre raping every wench they come upon and cutting off their teats for trophies.
Brienne felt obligated to pass along that warning to the farmer and his wife. The man nodded as
she told him, but when she was done he spat again and said, Dogs and wolves and lions, may
the Others take them all. These outlaws wont dare come too near to Maidenpool. Not so long as
Lord Tarly has the rule there.
Brienne knew Lord Randyll Tarly from her time with King Renlys host. Though she could not
find it in herself to like the man, she could not forget the debt she owed him either. If the gods
are good, we will pass Maidenpool before he knows that I am there. The town will be restored
to Lord Mooton once the fightings done, she told the farmer. His lordship has been pardoned
by the king.
Pardoned? The old man laughed. For what? Sitting on his arse in his bloody castle? He sent
men off to Riverrun to fight but never went himself. Lions sacked his town, then wolves, then
sellswords, and his lordship just sat safe behind his walls. His brother ud never have hid like
that. Ser Myles was bold as brass till that Robert killed him.
More ghosts, Brienne thought. I am looking for my sister, a fair maid of three-and-ten. Perhaps
youve seen her?
Ive not seen no maids, fair nor foul.
No one has. But she had to keep asking.
Mootons daughter, shes a maid, the man went on. Till the bedding, anyways. These eggs,
theyre for her wedding. Her and Tarlys son. The cooks will need eggs for cakes.
They will. Lord Tarlys son. Young Dickons to be wed. She tried to recall how old he was;
eight or ten, she thought. Brienne had been betrothed at seven, to a boy three years her senior,
Lord Carons younger son, a shy boy with a mole above his lip. They had only met the once, on
the occasion of their betrothal. Two years later he was dead, carried off by the same chill that
took Lord and Lady Caron and their daughters. Had he lived, they would have been wed within a
year of her first flowering, and her whole life would have been different. She would not be here
now, dressed in mans mail and carrying a sword, hunting for a dead womans child. More like

shed be at Nightsong, swaddling a child of her own and nursing another. It was not a new
thought for Brienne. It always made her feel a little sad, but a little relieved as well.
The sun was half-hidden behind a bank of clouds when they emerged from the blackened trees
to find Maidenpool before them, with the deep waters of the bay beyond. The towns gates had
been rebuilt and strengthened, Brienne saw at once, and crossbowmen walked its pink stone
walls once more. Above the gatehouse floated King Tommens royal banner, a black stag and
golden lion combatant on a field divided gold and crimson. Other banners displayed the Tarly
huntsman, but the red salmon of House Mooton flew only from their castle on its hill.
At the portcullis they came upon a dozen guards armed with halberds. Their badges marked
them for soldiers of Lord Tarlys host, though none was Tarlys own. She saw two centaurs, a
thunderbolt, a blue beetle and a green arrow, but not the striding huntsman of Horn Hill. Their
serjeant had a peacock on his breast, its bright tail faded by the sun. When the farmers drew their
cart up he gave a whistle. Whats this now? Eggs? He tossed one up, caught it, and grinned.
Well take them.
The old man squawked. Our eggs is for Lord Mooton. For the wedding cakes and such.
Have your hens lay more. I havent had an egg in half a year. Here, dont say you werent
paid. He flung a handful of pennies at the old mans feet.
The farmers wife spoke up. Thats not enough, she said. Not near enough.
I say it is, said the serjeant. For them eggs, and you as well. Bring her here, boys. Shes too
young for that old man. Two of the guards leaned their halberds against the wall and pulled the
woman away from the cart, struggling. The farmer watched grey-faced, but dared not move.
Brienne spurred her mare forward. Release her.
Her voice made the guards hesitate long enough for the farmers wife to wrench free of their
grasp. This is none of your concern, one man said. You mind your mouth, wench.
Brienne drew her sword instead.
Well now, the serjeant said, naked steel. Seems to me I smell an outlaw. You know what
Lord Tarly does with outlaws? He still held the egg hed taken from the cart. His hand closed,
and the yolk oozed through his fingers.
I know what Lord Randyll does with outlaws, Brienne said. I know what he does with rapers
too.
She had hoped the name might cow them, but the serjeant only flicked egg off his fingers and
signaled to his men to spread out. Brienne found herself surrounded by steel points. What was it
you was saying, wench? What is it that Lord Tarly does to...
... rapers, a deeper voice finished. He gelds them or sends them to the Wall. Sometimes
both. And he cuts fingers off thieves. A languid young man stepped from the gatehouse, a
swordbelt buckled at his waist. The surcoat he wore above his steel had once been white, and
here and there still was, beneath the grass stains and dried blood. His sigil was displayed across
his chest: a brown deer, dead and bound and slung beneath a pole.
Him. His voice was a punch in her stomach, his face a blade in her bowels. Ser Hyle, she said
stiffly.

Best let her by, lads, warned Ser Hyle Hunt. This is Brienne the Beauty, the Maid of Tarth,
who slew King Renly and half his Rainbow Guard. Shes as mean as she is ugly, and theres no
one uglier... except perhaps for you, Pisspot, but your father was the rear end of an aurochs, so
you have a good excuse. Her father is the Evenstar of Tarth.
The guards laughed, but the halberds parted. Shouldnt we seize her, ser? the serjeant asked.
For killing Renly?
Why? Renly was a rebel. So were we all, rebels to a man, but now were Tommens loyal
lads. The knight waved the farm folk through the gate. His lordships steward will be pleased
to see those eggs. Youll find him in the market.
The old man knuckled his forehead. My thanks, mlord. Youre a true knight, its plain to see.
Come, wife. They put their shoulders to the cart again and rumbled through the gate.
Brienne trotted after them, with Podrick at her heels. A true knight, she thought, frowning.
Inside the town she reined up. The ruins of a stable could be seen off to her left, fronting on a
muddy alley. Across from it three half-dressed whores stood on the balcony of a brothel,
whispering to one another. One looked a bit like a camp follower who had once come up to
Brienne to ask if she had a cunt or a cock inside her breeches.
That rounsey may be the most hideous horse Ive ever seen, said Ser Hyle of Podricks
mount. I am surprised that youre not riding it, my lady. Do you plan to thank me for my help?
Brienne swung down off her mare. She stood a head taller than Ser Hyle. One day Ill thank
you in a mle, ser.
The way you thanked Red Ronnet? Hunt laughed. He had a full, rich laugh, though his face
was plain. An honest face, shed thought once, before she learned better; shaggy brown hair,
hazel eyes, a little scar by his left ear. His chin had a cleft and his nose was crooked, but he did
laugh well, and often.
Shouldnt you be watching your gate?
He made a wry face at her. My cousin Alyn is off hunting outlaws. Doubtless hell return with
the Hounds head, gloating and covered in glory. Meanwhile, I am condemned to guard this gate,
thanks to you. I hope youre pleased, my beauty. What is it that youre looking for?
A stable.
Over by the east gate. This one burned.
I can see that. What you said to those men... I was with King Renly when he died, but it was
some sorcery that slew him, ser. I swear it on my sword. She put her hand upon her hilt, ready
to fight if Hunt named her a liar to her face.
Aye, and it was the Knight of Flowers who carved up the Rainbow Guard. On a good day you
might have been able to defeat Ser Emmon. He was a rash fighter, and he tired easily. Royce,
though? No. Ser Robar was twice the swordsman that you are... though youre not a swordsman,
are you? Is there such a word as swordswench? What quest brings the Maid to Maidenpool, I
wonder?
Searching for my sister, a maid of three-and-ten, she almost said, but Ser Hyle would know she
had no sisters. Theres a man I seek, at a place called the Stinking Goose.

I thought Brienne the Beauty had no use for men. There was a cruel edge to his smile. The
Stinking Goose. An apt name, that... the stinking part, at least. Its by the harbor. First you will
come with me to see his lordship.
Brienne did not fear Ser Hyle, but he was one of Randyll Tarlys captains. A whistle, and a
hundred men would come running to defend him. Am I to be arrested?
What, for Renly? Who was he? Weve changed kings since then, some of us twice. No one
cares, no one remembers. He laid a hand lightly on her arm. This way, if you please.
She wrenched away. I would thank you not to touch me.
Thanks at last, he said, with a wry smile.
When last she had seen Maidenpool, the town had been a desolation, a grim place of empty
streets and burned homes. Now the streets were full of pigs and children, and most of the burned
buildings had been pulled down. Vegetables had been planted in the lots where some once stood;
merchants tents and knights pavilions took the place of others. Brienne saw new houses going
up, a stone inn rising where a wooden inn had burned, a new slate roof on the town sept. The
cool autumn air rang to the sounds of saw and hammer. Men carried timber through the streets,
and quarrymen drove their wagons down muddy lanes. Many wore the striding huntsman on
their breasts. The soldiers are rebuilding the town, she said, surprised.
They would sooner be dicing, drinking, and fucking, I dont doubt, but Lord Randyll believes
in putting idle men to work.
She had expected to be taken to the castle. Instead, Hunt led them toward the busy harbor. The
traders had returned to Maidenpool, she was pleased to see. A galley, a galleas, and a big two-
masted cog were in port, along with a score of little fishing boats. More fishermen were visible
out on the bay. If the Stinking Goose yields nothing, I will take passage on a ship, she decided.
Gulltown was only a short voyage away. From there she could make her way to the Eyrie easily
enough.
They found Lord Tarly in the fishmarket, doing justice.
A platform had been thrown up beside the water, from which his lordship could look down
upon he men accused of crimes. To his left stood a long gallows, with ropes enough for twenty
men. Four corpses swung beneath it. One looked fresh, but the other three had plainly been there
for some time. A crow was pulling strips of flesh from the ripe ruins of one of the dead men. The
other crows had scattered, wary of the crowd of townsfolk whod gathered in hopes of
someones being hanged.
Lord Randyll shared the platform with Lord Mooton, a pale, soft, fleshy man in a white doublet
and red breeches, his ermine cloak pinned at the shoulder by a red-gold brooch in the shape of a
salmon. Tarly wore mail and boiled leather, and a breastplate of grey steel. The hilt of a
greatsword poked up above his left shoulder. Heartsbane, it was named, the pride of his House.
A stripling in a roughspun cloak and soiled jerkin was being heard when they came up. I never
hurt no one, mlord, Brienne heard him say. I only took what the septons left when they run
off. If you got to take my finger for that, do it.

It is customary to take a finger from a thief, Lord Tarly replied in a hard voice, but a man
who steals from a sept is stealing from the gods. He turned to his captain of guards. Seven
fingers. Leave his thumbs.
Seven? The thief paled. When the guards seized hold of him he tried to fight, but feebly, as if
he were already maimed. Watching him, Brienne could not help think of Ser Jaime, and the way
hed screamed when Zollos arakh came flashing down.
The next man was a baker, accused of mixing sawdust in his flour. Lord Randyll fined him fifty
silver stags. When the baker swore he did not have that much silver, his lordship declared that he
could have a lash for every stag that he was short. He was followed by a haggard grey-faced
whore, accused of giving the pox to four of Tarlys soldiers. Wash out her private parts with lye
and throw her in a dungeon, Tarly commanded. As the whore was dragged off sobbing, his
lordship saw Brienne on the edge of the crowd, standing between Podrick and Ser Hyle. He
frowned at her, but his eyes betrayed not a flicker of recognition.
A sailor off the galleas came next. His accuser was an archer of Lord Mootons garrison, with a
bandaged hand and a salmon on his breast. If it please mlord, this bastid put his dagger through
my hand. He said I was cheating him at dice.
Lord Tarly took his gaze away from Brienne to consider the men before him. Were you?
No, mlord. I never.
For theft, I will take a finger. Lie to me and I will hang you. Shall I ask to see these dice?
The dice? The archer looked to Mooton, but his lordship was gazing at the fishing boats. The
bowman swallowed. Might be I... them dice, theyre lucky for me, s true, but I...
Tarly had heard enough. Take his little finger. He can choose which hand. A nail through the
palm for the other. He stood. Were done. March the rest of them back to the dungeon, Ill deal
with them on the morrow. He turned to beckon Ser Hyle forward. Brienne followed. My lord,
she said, when she stood before him. She felt eight years old again.
My lady. To what do we owe this... honor?
I have been sent to look for... for... She hesitated.
How will you find him if you do not know his name? Did you slay Lord Renly?
No.
Tarly weighed the word. He is judging me, as he judged those others. No, he said at last, you
only let him die.
He had died in her arms, his lifes blood drenching her. Brienne flinched. It was sorcery. I
never...
You never? His voice became a whip. Aye. You never should have donned mail, nor
buckled on a sword. You never should have left your fathers hall. This is a war, not a harvest
ball. By all the gods, I ought to ship you back to Tarth.
Do that and answer to the throne. Her voice sounded high and girlish, when she wanted to
sound fearless. Podrick. In my bag youll find a parchment. Bring it to his lordship.
Tarly took the letter and unrolled it, scowling. His lips moved as he read. The kings business.
What sort of business?

Lie to me and I will hang you. S-sansa Stark.
If the Stark girl were here, Id know it. Shes run back north, Ill wager. Hoping to find refuge
with one of her fathers bannermen. She had best hope she chooses the right one.
She might have gone to the Vale instead, Brienne heard herself blurt out, to her mothers
sister.
Lord Randyll gave her a contemptuous look. Lady Lysa is dead. Some singer pushed her off a
mountain. Littlefinger holds the Eyrie now... though not for long. The lords of the Vale are not
the sort to bend their knees to some upjumped jackanapes whose only skill is counting coppers.
He handed her back her letter. Go where you want and do as you will... but when youre raped
dont look to me for justice. You will have earned it with your folly. He glanced at Ser Hyle.
And you, ser, should be at your gate. I gave you the command there, did I not?
You did, my lord, said Hyle Hunt, but I thought
You think too much. Lord Tarly strode away.
Lysa Tully is dead. Brienne stood beneath the gallows, the precious parchment in her hand. The
crowd had dispersed, and the crows had returned to resume their feast. A singer pushed her off a
mountain. Had the crows dined on Lady Catelyns sister too?
You spoke of the Stinking Goose, my lady, said Ser Hyle. If you want me to show you
Go back to your gate.
A look of annoyance flashed across his face. A plain face, not an honest one. If thats your
wish.
It is.
It was only a game to pass the time. We meant no harm. He hesitated. Ben died, you know.
Cut down on the Blackwater. Farrow too, and Will the Stork. And Mark Mullendore took a
wound that cost him half his arm.
Good, Brienne wanted to say. Good, he deserved it. But she remembered Mullendore sitting
outside his pavilion with his monkey on his shoulder in a little suit of chainmail, the two of them
making faces at each other. What was it Catelyn Stark had called them, that night at
Bitterbridge? The knights of summer. And now it was autumn and they were falling like leaves...
She turned her back on Hyle Hunt. Podrick, come.
The boy trotted after her, leading their horses. Are we going to find the place? The Stinking
Goose?
I am. You are going to the stables, by the east gate. Ask the stableman if theres an inn where
we can spend the night.
I will, ser. My lady. Podrick stared at the ground as they went, kicking stones from time to
time. Do you know where it is? The Goose? The Stinking Goose, I mean.
No.
He said hed show us. That knight. Ser Kyle.
Hyle.
Hyle. What did he do to you, ser? I mean, my lady.

The boy may be a stumbletongue, but hes not stupid. At Highgarden, when King Renly called
his banners, some men played a game with me. Ser Hyle was one of them. It was a cruel game,
hurtful and unchivalrous. She stopped. The east gate is that way. Wait for me there.
As you say, my lady. Ser.
No sign marked the Stinking Goose. It took her most of an hour to find it, down a flight of
wooden steps beneath a knackers barn. The cellar was dim and the ceiling low, and Brienne
thumped her head on a beam as she entered. No geese were in evidence. A few stools were
scattered about, and a bench had been shoved up against one earthen wall. The tables were old
wine casks, grey and wormholed. The promised stink pervaded everything. Mostly it was wine
and damp and mildew, her nose told her, but there was a little of the privy too, and something of
the lichyard.
The only drinkers were three Tyroshi seamen in a corner, growling at each other through green
and purple beards. They gave her a brief inspection, and one said something that made the others
laugh. The proprietor stood behind a plank that had been placed across two barrels. She was a
woman, round and pale and balding, with huge soft breasts swaying beneath a soiled smock. She
looked as though the gods had made her out of uncooked dough.
Brienne did not dare to ask for water here. She bought a cup of wine and said, I am looking for
a man called Nimble Dick.
Dick Crabb. Comes in most every night. The woman eyed Briennes mail and sword. If
youre going to cut him, do it somewheres else. We dont want no trouble with Lord Tarly.
I want to talk with him. Why would I do him harm?
The woman shrugged.
If you would nod when he comes in Id be thankful.
How thankful?
Brienne put a copper star on the plank between them and found a place in the shadows with a
good view of the steps.
She tried the wine. It was oily on the tongue and there was a hair floating in it. A hair as slender
as my hopes of finding Sansa, she thought as she plucked it out. Chasing after Ser Dontos had
been fruitless, and with Lady Lysa dead the Vale no longer seemed a likely refuge. Where are
you, Lady Sansa? Did you run home to Winterfell, or are you with your husband, as Podrick
seems to think? Brienne did not want to chase the girl across the narrow sea, where even the
language would be strange to her. I will be even more a freak there, grunting and gesturing to
make myself understood. They will laugh at me, as they laughed at Highgarden. A blush stole up
her cheeks as she remembered.
When Renly donned his crown, the Maid of Tarth had ridden all the way across the Reach to
join him. The king himself had greeted her courteously and welcomed her to his service. Not so
his lords and knights. Brienne had not expected a warm welcome. She was prepared for coldness,
for mockery, for hostility. She had supped upon such meat before. It was not the scorn of the
many that left her confused and vulnerable, but the kindness of the few. The Maid of Tarth had
been betrothed three times, but she had never been courted until she came to Highgarden.

Big Ben Bushy was the first, one of the few men in Renlys camp who overtopped her. He sent
his squire to her to clean her mail, and made her a gift of a silver drinking horn. Ser Edmund
Ambrose went him one better, bringing flowers and asking her to ride with him. Ser Hyle Hunt
outdid them both. He gave her a book, beautifully illuminated and filled with a hundred tales of
knightly valor. He brought apples and carrots for her horses, and a blue silk plume for her helm.
He told her the gossip of the camp and said clever, cutting things that made her smile. He even
trained with her one day, which meant more than all the rest.
She thought it was because of him that the others started being courteous. More than courteous.
At table men fought for the place beside her, offering to fill her wine cup or fetch her
sweetbreads. Ser Richard Farrow played love songs on his lute outside her pavilion. Ser Hugh
Beesbury brought her a pot of honey as sweet as the maids of Tarth. Ser Mark Mullendore
made her laugh with the antics of his monkey, a curious little black-and-white creature from the
Summer Islands. A hedge knight called Will the Stork offered to rub the knots from her
shoulders.
Brienne refused him. She refused them all. When Ser Owen Inchfield seized her one night and
pressed a kiss upon her, she knocked him arse-backwards into a cookfire. Afterward she looked
at herself in a glass. Her face was as broad and bucktoothed and freckled as ever, big-lipped,
thick of jaw, so ugly. All she wanted was to be a knight and serve King Renly, yet now...
It was not as if she were the only woman there. Even the camp followers were prettier than she
was, and up in the castle Lord Tyrell feasted King Renly every night, whilst highborn maids and
lovely ladies danced to the music of pipe and horn and harp. Why are you being kind to me? she
wanted to scream, every time some strange knight paid her a compliment. What do you want?
Randyll Tarly solved the mystery the day he sent two of his men-at-arms to summon her to his
pavilion. His young son Dickon had overheard four knights laughing as they saddled up their
horses, and had told his lord father what they said.
They had a wager.
Three of the younger knights had started it, he told her: Ambrose, Bushy, and Hyle Hunt, of his
own household. As word spread through the camp, however, others had joined the game. Each
man was required to buy into the contest with a golden dragon, the whole sum to go to whoever
claimed her maidenhead.
I have put an end to their sport, Tarly told her. Some of these... challengers... are less
honorable than others, and the stakes were growing larger every day. It was only a matter of time
before one of them decided to claim the prize by force.
They were knights, she said, stunned, anointed knights.
And honorable men. The blame is yours.
The accusation made her flinch. I would never... my lord, I did nought to encourage them.
Your being here encouraged them. If a woman will behave like a camp follower, she cannot
object to being treated like one. A war host is no place for a maiden. If you have any regard for
your virtue or the honor of your House, you will take off that mail, return home, and beg your
father to find a husband for you.

I came to fight, she insisted. To be a knight.
The gods made men to fight, and women to bear children, said Randyll Tarly. A womans
war is in the birthing bed.
Someone was coming down the cellar steps. Brienne pushed her wine aside as a ragged,
scrawny, sharp-faced man with dirty brown hair stepped into the Goose. He gave the Tyroshi
sailors a quick look and Brienne a longer one, then went up to the plank. Wine, he said, and
none o your horse piss in it, thanke.
The woman gave Brienne a look and nodded.
Ill buy your wine, she called out, for a word.
The man looked her over, his eyes wary. A word? I know a lot o words. He sat down on the
stool across from her. Tell me which mlady wants t hear, and Nimble Dick will say it.
I heard you fooled a fool.
The ragged man sipped his wine, thinking. Mighten be I did. Or not. He wore a faded, torn
doublet from which some lords badge had been ripped. Who is it wants t know?
King Robert. She put a silver stag on the barrel between them. Roberts head was on one side,
the stag on the other.
Does he now? The man took the coin and spun it, smiling. I like to see a king dance, hey-
nonny hey-nonny hey-nonny-ho. Mighten be I saw this fool of yours.
Was there a girl with him?
Two girls, he said at once.
Two girls? Could the other one be Arya?
Well, the man said, I never seen the little sweets, mind you, but he was wanting passage for
three.
Passage where?
Tother side o the sea, as I recall.
Do you remember what he looked like?
A fool. He snatched the spinning coin off the table as it began to slow, and made it vanish. A
frightened fool.
Frightened why?
He shrugged. He never said, but old Nimble Dick knows the smell o fear. He come here most
every night, buying drinks for sailors, making japes, singing little songs. Only one night some
men come in with that hunter on their teats, and your fool went white as milk and got quiet till
they left. He edged his stool closer to hers. That Tarlys got soldiers crawling over the docks,
watching every ship that comes or goes. Man wants a deer, he goes t the woods. He wants a
ship, he goes t the docks. Your fool didnt dare. So I offered him some help.
What sort of help?
The sort that costs more than one silver stag.
Tell me, and youll have another.

Lets see it, he said. She put another stag on the barrel. He spun it, smiled, scooped it up. A
man who cant go t the ships need for the ships t come t him. I told him I knew a place where
that might happen. A hidden place, like.
Gooseprickles rose along Briennes arms. A smugglers cove. You sent the fool to smugglers.
Him and them two girls. He chuckled. Only thing, well, the place I sent them, been no ships
there for a while. Thirty years, say. He scratched his nose. Whats this fool to you?
Those two girls are my sisters.
Are they, now? Poor little things. Had a sister once meself. Skinny girl with knobby knees, but
then she grew a pair o teats and a knights son got between her legs. Last I saw her she was off
for Kings Landing t make a living on her back.
Where did you send them?
Another shrug. As t that, I cant recall.
Where? Brienne slapped another silver stag down.
He flicked the coin back at her with his forefinger. Someplace no stag ever found... though a
dragon might.
Silver would not get the truth from him, she sensed. Gold might, or it might not. Steel would be
more certain. Brienne touched her dagger, then reached into her purse instead. She found a
golden dragon and put in on the barrel. Where?
The ragged man snatched up the coin and bit it. Sweet. Puts me in mind o Crackclaw Point.
Up north o here, tis a wild land o hills and bogs, but it happens I was born and bred there. Dick
Crabb, Im named, though most call me Nimble Dick.
She did not offer her own name. Where in Crackclaw Point?
The Whispers. You heard o Clarence Crabb, o course.
No.
That seemed to surprise him. Ser Clarence Crabb, I said. I got his blood in me. He was eight
foot tall, and so strong he could uproot pine trees with one hand and chuck them half a mile. No
horse could bear his weight, so he rode an aurochs.
What does he have to do with this smugglers cove?
His wife was a woods witch. Whenever Ser Clarence killed a man, hed fetch his head back
home and his wife would kiss it on the lips and bring it back t life. Lords, they were, and
wizards, and famous knights and pirates. One was king o Duskendale. They gave old Crabb
good counsel. Being they was just heads, they couldnt talk real loud, but they never shut up
neither. When youre a head, talkings all you got to pass the day. So Crabbs keep got named
the Whispers. Still is, though its been a ruin for a thousand years. A lonely place, the Whispers.
The man walked the coin deftly across his knuckles. One dragon by hisself gets lonely. Ten,
now...
Ten dragons are a fortune. Do you take me for a fool?
No, but I can take you to one. The coin danced one way, and back the other. Take you to the
Whispers, mlady.

Brienne did not like the way his fingers played with that gold coin. Still... Six dragons if we
find my sister. Two if we only find the fool. Nothing if nothing is what we find.
Crabb shrugged. Six is good. Six will serve.
Too quick. She caught his wrist before he could tuck the gold away. Do not play me false.
Youll not find me easy meat.
When she let go, Crabb rubbed his wrist. Bloody piss, he muttered. You hurt my hand.
I am sorry for that. My sister is a girl of three-and-ten. I need to find her before
before some knight gets in her slit. Aye, I hear you. Shes good as saved. Nimble Dick is
with you now. Meet me by east gate at first light. I need t see this man about a horse.

SAMWELL
The sea made Samwell Tarly greensick.
It was not all his fear of drowning, though that was surely some of it. It was the motion of the
ship as well, the way the decks rolled beneath his feet. I have a queasy belly, he confessed to
Dareon the day they sailed from Eastwatch-by-the-Sea. The singer slapped him on the back and
said, With a belly big as yours, Slayer, that is a lot of quease.
Sam tried to keep a brave face on him, for Gillys sake if little else. She had never seen the sea
before. When they were struggling through the snows after fleeing Crasters Keep, they had
come on several lakes, and even those had been a wonder to her. As Blackbird slipped away
from shore the girl began to tremble, and big salt tears rolled down her cheeks. Gods be good,
Sam heard her whisper. Eastwatch vanished first, and the Wall grew smaller and smaller in the
distance, until it finally disappeared. The wind was coming up by then. The sails were the faded
grey of a black cloak that had been washed too often, and Gillys face was white with fear. This
is a good ship, Sam tried to tell her. You dont have to be afraid. But she only looked at him,
held her baby tighter, and fled below.
Sam soon found himself clutching tightly to the gunwale and watching the sweep of the oars.
The way they all moved together was somehow beautiful to behold, and better than looking at
the water. Looking at the water only made him think of drowning. When he was small his lord
father had tried to teach him how to swim by throwing him into the pond beneath Horn Hill. The
water had gotten in his nose and in his mouth and in his lungs, and he coughed and wheezed for
hours after Ser Hyle pulled him out. After that he never dared go in any deeper than his waist.
The Bay of Seals was a lot deeper than his waist, and not so friendly as that little fishpond
below his fathers castle. Its waters were grey and green and choppy, and the wooded shore they
followed was a snarl of rocks and whirlpools. Even if he could kick and crawl that far somehow,
the waves were like to smash him up against some stone and break his head to pieces.
Looking for mermaids, Slayer? asked Dareon when he saw Sam staring off across the bay.
Fair-haired and hazel-eyed, the handsome young singer out of Eastwatch looked more like some
dark prince than a black brother.
No. Sam did not know what he was looking for, or what he was doing on this boat. Going to
the Citadel to forge a chain and be a maester, to be of better service to the Watch, he told
himself, but the thought just made him weary. He did not want to be a maester, with a heavy
chain wrapped around his neck, cold against his skin. He did not want to leave his brothers, the
only friends hed ever had. And he certainly did not want to face the father who had sent him to
the Wall to die.
It was different for the others. For them, the voyage would have a happy ending. Gilly would be
safe at Horn Hill, with all the width of Westeros between her and the horrors she had known in
the haunted forest. As a serving maid in his fathers castle, she would be warm and well fed, a
small part of a great world she could never have dreamed of as Crasters wife. She would watch

her son grow up big and strong, and become a huntsman or a stablehand or a smith. If the boy
showed any aptitude for arms, some knight might even take him as a squire.
Maester Aemon was going to a better place as well. It was pleasant to think of him spending
whatever time remained him bathed by the warm breezes of Oldtown, conversing with his fellow
maesters and sharing his wisdom with acolytes and novices. He had earned his rest, a hundred
times over.
Even Dareon would be happier. He had always claimed to be innocent of the rape that sent him
to the Wall, insisting that he belonged at some lords court, singing for his supper. Now he would
have that chance. Jon had named him a recruiter, to take the place of a man named Yoren, who
had vanished and was presumed dead. His task would be to travel the Seven Kingdoms, singing
of the valor of the Nights Watch, and from time to time returning to the Wall with new recruits.
The voyage would be long and rough, no one could deny that, but for the others at least there
would be a happy end. That was Sams solace. I am going for them, he told himself, for the
Nights Watch, and for the happy ending. The longer he looked at the sea, though, the colder and
deeper it appeared.
But not looking at the water was even worse, Sam realized in the cramped cabin beneath the
sterncastle that the passengers were sharing. He tried to take his mind off the roiling in his
stomach by talking with Gilly as she nursed her son. This ship will take us as far as Braavos,
he said. Well find another ship to carry us to Oldtown. I read a book about Braavos when I was
small. The whole city is built in a lagoon on a hundred little islands, and they have a titan there, a
stone man hundreds of feet high. They have boats instead of horses, and their mummers play out
written stories instead of just making up the usual stupid farces. The food is very good too,
especially the fish. They have all kinds of clams and eels and oysters, fresh from their lagoon.
We ought to have a few days between ships. If we do, we can go and see a mummer show, and
have some oysters.
He thought that would excite her. He could not have been more wrong. Gilly peered at him with
flat, dull eyes, looking through some strands of unwashed hair. If you want, mlord.
What do you want? Sam asked her.
Nothing. She turned away from him and moved her son from one breast to the other.
The motion of the boat was stirring up the eggs and bacon and fried bread that Sam had eaten
before the ship set out. All at once he could not stand the cabin one more instant. He pushed
himself back to his feet and clambered up the ladder to give his breakfast to the sea. The sickness
came on Sam so strongly that he did not stop to gauge which way the wind was blowing, so he
retched from the wrong rail and ended up spattering himself. Even so, he felt much better
afterward... though not for long.
The ship was Blackbird, the largest of the Watchs galleys. Storm Crow and Talon were faster,
Cotter Pyke told Maester Aemon back at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea, but they were fighting ships,
lean, swift birds of prey where the rowers sat on open decks. Blackbird was a better choice for
the rough waters of the narrow sea beyond Skagos. There have been storms, Pyke warned
them. Winter storms are worse, but autumns are more frequent.

The first ten days were calm enough, as Blackbird crept across the Bay of Seals, never out of
sight of land. It was cold when the wind was blowing, but there was something bracing about the
salt smell in the air. Sam could hardly eat, and when he did force something down it did not stay
down for long, but aside from that he did not do too badly. He tried to bolster Gillys courage
and give her what cheer he could, but that proved hard. She would not come up on deck, no
matter what he said, and seemed to prefer to huddle in the dark with her son. The babe liked the
ship no more than his mother did, it seemed. When he was not squalling, he was retching up his
mothers milk. His bowels were loose and always moving, staining the furs that Gilly wrapped
him in to keep him warm and filling the air with a brown stench. No matter how many tallow
candles Sam lit, the smell of shit persisted.
It was more pleasant out in the open air, especially when Dareon was singing. The singer was
known to Blackbirds oarsmen, and would play for them as they rowed. He knew all their
favorite songs: sad ones like The Day They Hanged Black Robin, The Mermaids Lament,
and Autumn of My Day, rousing ones like Iron Lances and Seven Swords for Seven Sons,
bawdy ones like Miladys Supper, Her Little Flower, and Meggett Was a Merry Maid, a
Merry Maid Was She. When he sang The Bear and the Maiden Fair, all the oarsmen joined
in, and Blackbird seemed to fly across the water. Dareon had not been much of a swordsman,
Sam knew from their days training under Alliser Thorne, but he had a beautiful voice. Honey
poured over thunder, Maester Aemon had once called it. He played woodharp and fiddle too,
and even wrote his own songs... though Sam did not think them very good. Still, it was good to
sit and listen, though the chest was so hard and splintery that Sam was almost grateful for his
fleshy buttocks. Fat men take a cushion with them wherever they go, he thought.
Maester Aemon preferred to spend his days on deck as well, huddled beneath a pile of furs and
gazing out across the water. What is he looking at? Dareon wondered one day. For him its as
dark up here as it is down in the cabin.
The old man heard him. Though Aemons eyes had dimmed and gone dark, there was nothing
wrong with his ears. I was not born blind, he reminded them. When last I passed this way, I
saw every rock and tree and whitecap, and watched the grey gulls flying in our wake. I was five-
and-thirty and had been a maester of the chain for sixteen years. Egg wanted me to help him rule,
but I knew my place was here. He sent me north aboard the Golden Dragon, and insisted that his
friend Ser Duncan see me safe to Eastwatch. No recruit had arrived at the Wall with so much
pomp since Nymeria sent the Watch six kings in golden fetters. Egg emptied out the dungeons
too, so I would not need to say my vows alone. My honor guard, he called them. One was no less
a man than Brynden Rivers. Later he was chosen lord commander.
Bloodraven? said Dareon. I know a song about him. A Thousand Eyes, and One, its
called. But I thought he lived a hundred years ago.
We all did. Once I was as young as you. That seemed to make him sad. He coughed, and
closed his eyes, and went to sleep, swaying in his furs whenever some wave rocked the ship.
Beneath grey skies they sailed, east and south and east again, as the Bay of Seals widened about
them. The captain, a grizzled brother with a belly like a keg of ale, wore blacks so stained and

faded that the crew called him Old Tattersalt. He seldom said a word. His mate made up for him,
blistering the salt air with curses whenever the wind died or the oarsmen seemed to flag. They
ate oaten porridge in the mornings, pease porridge in the afternoons, and salt beef, salt cod, and
salt mutton at night, and washed it down with ale. Dareon sang, Sam retched, Gilly cried and
nursed her babe, Maester Aemon slept and shivered, and the winds grew colder and more
blustery with every passing day.
Even so, it was a better voyage than the last one Sam had taken. He had been no more than ten
when he set sail on Lord Redwynes galleas, the Arbor Queen. Five times as large as Blackbird
and magnificent to behold, she had three great burgundy sails and banks of oars that flashed gold
and white in the sunlight. The way they rose and fell as the ship departed Oldtown had made
Sam hold his breath... but that was the last good memory he had of the Redwyne Straits. Then as
now the sea had made him sick, to his lord fathers disgust.
And when they reached the Arbor, things had gone from bad to worse. Lord Redwynes twin
sons had despised Sam on first sight. Every morn they found some fresh way to shame him in the
practice yard. On the third day Horas Redwyne made him squeal like a pig when he begged for
quarter. On the fifth his brother Hobber clad a kitchen girl in his own armor and let her beat Sam
with a wooden sword until he began to cry. When she revealed herself, all the squires and pages
and stableboys howled with laughter.
The boy needs a bit of seasoning, thats all, his father had told Lord Redwyne that night, but
Redwynes fool rattled his rattle and replied, Aye, a pinch of pepper, a few nice cloves, and an
apple in his mouth. Thereafter, Lord Randyll forbade Sam to eat apples so long as they
remained beneath Paxter Redwynes roof. He had been seasick on their voyage home as well, but
so relieved to be going that he almost welcomed the taste of vomit at the back of his throat. It
was not until they were back at Horn Hill that his mother told Sam that his father had never
meant for him to return. Horas was to come with us in your place, whilst you remained on the
Arbor as Lord Paxters page and cupbearer. If you had pleased him, you would have been
betrothed to his daughter. Sam could still recall the soft touch of his mothers hand as she
washed the tears off his face with a bit of lace, dampened with her spit. My poor Sam, she
murmured. My poor poor Sam.
It will be good to see her again, he thought, as he clung to Blackbirds rail and watched waves
breaking on the stony shore. If she saw me in my blacks, it might even make her proud. I am a
man now, Mother, I could tell her, a steward, and a man of the Nights Watch. My brothers
call me Sam the Slayer sometimes. He would see his brother Dickon too, and his sisters. See,
I could tell them, see, I was good for something after all.
If he went to Horn Hill, though, his father might be there.
The thought made his belly heave again. Sam bent over the gunwale and retched, but not into
the wind. He had gone to the right rail this time. He was getting good at retching.
Or so he thought, until Blackbird left the land behind and struck east across the bay for the
shores of Skagos.

The island sat at the mouth of the Bay of Seals, massive and mountainous, a stark and
forbidding land peopled by savages. They lived in caves and grim mountain fastnesses, Sam had
read, and rode great shaggy unicorns to war. Skagos meant stone in the Old Tongue. The
Skagosi named themselves the stoneborn, but their fellow northmen called them Skaggs and
liked them little. Only a hundred years ago Skagos had risen in rebellion. Their revolt had taken
years to quell and claimed the life of the Lord of Winterfell and hundreds of his sworn swords.
Some songs said the Skaggs were cannibals; supposedly their warriors ate the hearts and livers of
the men they slew. In ancient days, the Skagosi had sailed to the nearby isle of Skane, seized its
women, slaughtered its men, and ate them on a pebbled beach in a feast that lasted for a
fortnight. Skane remained unpeopled to this day.
Dareon knew the songs as well. When the bleak grey peaks of Skagos rose up from the sea, he
joined Sam at Blackbirds prow, and said, If the gods are good, we may catch a glimpse of a
unicorn.
If the captain is good, we wont come that close. The currents are treacherous around Skagos,
and there are rocks that can crack a ships hull like an egg. But dont you mention that to Gilly.
Shes scared enough.
Her and that squalling whelp of hers. I dont know which of them is noisier. The only time he
ever stops crying is when she shoves a nipple in his mouth, and then she starts to sob.
Sam had noticed that as well. Maybe the babe is hurting her, he said, feebly. If his teeth are
coming in...
Dareon plucked at his lute with one finger, sending up a derisive note. Id heard that wildlings
were braver than that.
She is brave, Sam insisted, though even he had to admit that he had never seen Gilly in such a
wretched state. Though she hid her face more oft than not and kept the cabin dark, he could see
that her eyes were always red, her cheeks wet with tears. When he asked her what was wrong,
though, she only shook her head, leaving him to find answers of his own. The sea scares her,
thats all, he told Dareon. Before she came to the Wall, all she knew was Crasters Keep and
the woods around it. I dont know that she went more than half a league from the place that she
was born. She knows streams and rivers, but she had never seen a lake until we came on one, and
the sea... the sea is a scary thing.
Weve never been out of sight of land.
We will be. Sam did not relish that part himself.
Surely a little water does not frighten the Slayer.
No, Sam lied, not me. But Gilly... maybe if you played some lullabies for them, it would
help the babe to sleep.
Dareons mouth twisted in disgust. Only if she shoves a plug up his arse. I cannot abide the
smell.
The next day the rains began, and the seas grew rougher. We had best go below, where its
dry, Sam said to Aemon, but the old maester only smiled, and said, The rain feels good against

my face, Sam. It feels like tears. Let me stay a while longer, I pray you. It has been a long time
since last I wept.
If Maester Aemon meant to stay on deck, old and frail as he was, Sam had no choice but to do
the same. He stayed beside the old man for nigh unto an hour, huddled in his cloak as a soft,
steady rain soaked him to his skin. Aemon hardly seemed to feel it. He sighed and closed his
eyes, and Sam moved closer to him, to shield him from the worst of the wind. He will ask me to
help him to the cabin soon, he told himself. He must. But he never did, and finally thunder began
to rumble in the distance, off to the east. We have to get below, Sam said, shivering. Maester
Aemon did not reply. It was only then that Sam realized the old man had gone to sleep.
Maester, he said, shaking him gently by one shoulder. Maester Aemon, wake up.
Aemons blind white eyes came open. Egg? he said, as the rain streamed down his cheeks.
Egg, I dreamed that I was old.
Sam did not know what to do. He knelt and scooped the old man up and carried him below. No
one had ever called him strong, and the rain had soaked through Maester Aemons blacks and
made him twice as heavy, but even so, he weighed no more than a child.
When he shoved into the cabin with Aemon in his arms, he found that Gilly had let all the
candles gutter out. The babe was asleep and she was curled up in a corner, sobbing softly in the
folds of the big black cloak that Sam had given her. Help me, he said urgently. Help me dry
him off and get him warm.
She rose at once, and together they got the old maester out of his wet clothes and buried him
beneath a pile of furs. His skin was damp and cold, though, clammy to the touch. You get in
with him, Sam told Gilly. Hold him. Warm him with your body. We have to warm him up.
She did that too, never saying a word, all the while still sniffling. Wheres Dareon? asked Sam.
Wed all be warmer if we were together. He needs to be here too. He was headed back up top
to find the singer when the deck rose up beneath him, then fell away beneath his feet. Gilly
wailed, Sam slammed down hard and lost his legs, and the babe woke screaming.
The next roll of the ship came as he was struggling back to his feet. It threw Gilly into his arms,
and the wildling girl clung to him so fiercely that Sam could hardly breathe. Dont you be
frightened, he told her. This is just an adventure. One day youll tell your son this tale. That
only made her dig her nails into his arm. She shuddered, her whole body shaking with the
violence of her sobs. Whatever I say just makes her worse. He held her tightly, uncomfortably
aware of her breasts pressing up against him. As frightened as he was, somehow that was enough
to make him stiff. Shell feel it, he thought, ashamed, but if she did, she gave no sign, only clung
to him the harder.
The days ran together after that. They never saw the sun. The days were grey and the nights
black, except when lightning lit the sky above the peaks of Skagos. All of them were starved yet
none could eat. The captain broached a cask of firewine to fortify the oarsmen. Sam tried a cup
and sighed as hot snakes wriggled down his throat and through his chest. Dareon took a liking to
the drink as well, and was seldom sober thereafter.

The sails went up, the sails came down, and one ripped free of the mast and flew away like a
great grey bird. As Blackbird rounded the south coast of Skagos, they spotted the wreckage of a
galley on the rocks. Some of her crew had washed up on the shore, and the rooks and crabs had
gathered to pay them homage. Too bloody close, grumbled Old Tattersalt when he saw. One
good blow, and well be breaking up aside them. Exhausted as they were, his rowers bent to
their oars again, and the ship clawed south toward the narrow sea, till Skagos dwindled to no
more than a few dark shapes in the sky that might have been thunderheads, or the tops of tall
black mountains, or both. After that, they had eight days and seven nights of clear, smooth
sailing.
Then came more storms, worse than before.
Was it three storms, or only one, broken up by lulls? Sam never knew, though he tried
desperately to care. What does it matter? Dareon screamed at him once, when all of them were
huddled in the cabin. It doesnt, Sam wanted to tell him, but so long as Im thinking about that
Im not thinking about drowning or being sick or Maester Aemons shivering. It doesnt, he
managed to squeak, but the thunder drowned out all the rest of it, and the deck lurched and
knocked him sideways. Gilly was sobbing. The babe was shrieking. And up top he could hear
Old Tattersalt bellowing at his crew, the ragged captain who never spoke at all.
I hate the sea, Sam thought, I hate the sea, I hate the sea, I hate the sea. The next lightning flash
was so bright it lit the cabin through the seams in the planking overhead. This is a good sound
ship, a good sound ship, a good ship, he told himself. It will not sink. I am not afraid.
During one of the lulls between the gales, as Sam clung white-knuckled to the rail wanting
desperately to retch, he heard some of the crew muttering that this was what came of bringing a
woman aboard ship, and a wildling woman at that. Fucked her own father, Sam heard one man
say, as the wind was rising once again. Worse than whoring, that. Worse than anything. Well
all drown unless we get rid of her, and that abomination that she whelped.
Sam dared not confront them. They were older men, hard and sinewy, their arms and shoulders
thickened by years at the oars. But he made certain that his knife was sharp, and whenever Gilly
left the cabin to make water, he went with her.
Even Dareon had no good to say about the wildling girl. Once, at Sams urging, the singer
played a lullaby to soothe the babe, but partway through the first verse Gilly began to sob
inconsolably. Seven bloody hells, Dareon snapped, cant you even stop weeping long enough
to hear a song?
Just play, Sam pleaded, just sing the song for her.
She doesnt need a song, said Dareon. She needs a good spanking, or maybe a hard fuck.
Get out of my way, Slayer. He shoved Sam aside and went from the cabin to find some solace
in a cup of firewine and the rough brotherhood of the oars.
Sam was at his wits end by then. He had almost gotten used to the smells, but between the
storms and Gillys sobbing he had not slept for days. Isnt there something you can give her?
he asked Maester Aemon very softly, when he saw that the old man was awake. Some herb or
potion, so she wont be so afraid?

It is not fear you hear, the old man told him. That is the sound of grief, and there is no potion
for that. Let her tears run their course, Sam. You cannot stem the flow.
Sam had not understood. Shes going to a safe place. A warm place. Why should she be
grieving?
Sam, the old man whispered, you have two good eyes, and yet you do not see. She is a
mother grieving for her child.
Hes greensick, thats all. Were all greensick. Once we make port in Braavos...
... the babe will still be Dallas son, and not the child of her body.
It took Sam a moment to grasp what Aemon was suggesting. That couldnt... she wouldnt... of
course hes hers. Gilly would never have left the Wall without her son. She loves him.
She nursed them both and loved them both, said Aemon, but not alike. No mother loves all
her children the same, not even the Mother Above. Gilly did not leave the child willingly, I am
certain. What threats the Lord Commander made, what promises, I can only guess... but threats
and promises there surely were.
No. No, thats wrong. Jon would never...
Jon would never. Lord Snow did. Sometimes there is no happy choice, Sam, only one less
grievous than the others.
No happy choice. Sam thought of all the trials that he and Gilly suffered, Crasters Keep and
the death of the Old Bear, snow and ice and freezing winds, days and days and days of walking,
the wights at Whitetree, Coldhands and the tree of ravens, the Wall, the Wall, the Wall, the Black
Gate beneath the earth. What had it all been for? No happy choices and no happy endings.
He wanted to scream. He wanted to howl and sob and shake and curl up in a little ball and
whimper. He switched the babes, he told himself. He switched the babes to protect the little
prince, to keep him away from Lady Melisandres fires, away from her red god. If she burns
Gillys boy, who will care? No one but Gilly. He was only Crasters whelp, an abomination born
of incest, not the son of the King-beyond-the-Wall. Hes no good for a hostage, no good for a
sacrifice, no good for anything, he doesnt even have a name.
Wordless, Sam staggered up onto the deck to retch, but there was nothing in his belly to bring
up. Night had come upon them, a strange still night such as they had not seen for many days. The
sea was black as glass. At the oars, the rowers rested. One or two were sleeping where they sat.
The wind was in the sails, and to the north Sam could even see a scattering of stars, and the red
wanderer the free folk called the Thief. That ought to be my star, Sam thought miserably. I
helped to make Jon Lord Commander, and I brought him Gilly and the babe. There are no happy
endings.
Slayer. Dareon appeared beside him, oblivious to Sams pain. A sweet night, for once. Look,
the stars are coming out. We might even get a bit of moon. Might be the worst is done.
No. Sam wiped his nose, and pointed south with a fat finger, toward the gathering darkness.
There, he said. No sooner had he spoken than lightning flashed, sudden and silent and blinding
bright. The distant clouds glowed for half a heartbeat, mountains heaped on mountains, purple

and red and yellow, taller than the world. The worst isnt done. The worst is just beginning, and
there are no happy endings.
Gods be good, said Dareon, laughing. Slayer, you are such a craven.

JAIME
Lord Tywin Lannister had entered the city on a stallion, his enameled crimson armor
polished and gleaming, bright with gems and goldwork. He left it in a tall wagon draped with
crimson banners, with six silent sisters riding attendance on his bones.
The funeral procession departed Kings Landing through the Gate of the Gods, wider and more
splendid than the Lion Gate. The choice felt wrong to Jaime. His father had been a lion, that no
one could deny, but even Lord Tywin never claimed to be a god.
An honor guard of fifty knights surrounded Lord Tywins wagon, crimson pennons fluttering
from their lances. The lords of the west followed close behind them. The winds snapped at their
banners, making their charges dance and flutter. As he trotted up the column, Jaime passed
boars, badgers, and beetles, a green arrow and a red ox, crossed halberds, crossed spears, a
treecat, a strawberry, a maunch, four sunbursts counterchanged.
Lord Brax was wearing a pale grey doublet slashed with cloth-of-silver, an amethyst unicorn
pinned above his heart. Lord Jast was armored in black steel, three gold lions heads inlaid on his
breastplate. The rumors of his death had not been far wrong, to look at him; wounds and
imprisonment had left him a shadow of the man hed been. Lord Banefort had weathered battle
better, and looked ready to return to war at once. Plumm wore purple, Prester ermine, Moreland
russet and green, but each had donned a cloak of crimson silk, in honor of the man they were
escorting home.
Behind the lords came a hundred crossbowmen and three hundred men-at-arms, and crimson
flowed from their shoulders as well. In his white cloak and white scale armor, Jaime felt out of
place amongst that river of red.
Nor did his uncle make him more at ease. Lord Commander, Ser Kevan said, when Jaime
trotted up beside him at the head of the column. Does Her Grace have some last command for
me?
I am not here for Cersei. A drum began to beat behind them, slow, measured, funereal. Dead,
it seemed to say, dead, dead. I came to make my farewells. He was my father.
And hers.
I am not Cersei. I have a beard, and she has breasts. If you are still confused, nuncle, count our
hands. Cersei has two.
Both of you have a taste for mockery, his uncle said. Spare me your japes, ser, I have no
taste for them.
As you will. This is not going as well as I might have hoped. Cersei would have wanted to
see you off, but she has many pressing duties.
Ser Kevan snorted. So do we all. How fares your king? His tone made the question a
reproach.
Well enough, Jaime said defensively. Balon Swann is with him during the mornings. A good
and valiant knight.
Once that went without saying when men spoke of those who wore the white cloak.

No man can choose his brothers, Jaime thought. Give me leave to pick my own men, and the
Kingsguard will be great again. Put that baldly, though, it sounded feeble; an empty boast from a
man the realm called Kingslayer. A man with shit for honor. Jaime let it go. He had not come to
argue with his uncle. Ser, he said, you need to make your peace with Cersei.
Are we at war? No one told me.
Jaime ignored that. Strife between Lannister and Lannister can only help the enemies of our
House.
If there is strife, it will not be my doing. Cersei wants to rule. Well and good. The realm is
hers. All I ask is to be left in peace. My place is at Darry with my son. The castle must needs be
restored, the lands planted and protected. He gave a bark of bitter laughter. And your sister has
left me little else to occupy my time. I had as well see Lancel wed. His bride has grown
impatient waiting for us to make our way to Darry.
His widow from the Twins. His cousin Lancel was riding ten yards behind them. With his
hollow eyes and dry white hair, he looked older than Lord Jast. Jaime could feel his phantom
fingers itching at the sight of him... . fucking Lancel and Osmund Kettleblack and Moon Boy for
all I know... He had tried to speak with Lancel more times than he could count, but never found
him alone. If his father was not with him, some septon was. He may be Kevans son, but he has
milk in his veins. Tyrion was lying to me. His words were meant to wound.
Jaime put his cousin from his thoughts and turned back to his uncle. Will you remain at Darry
after the wedding?
For a while, mayhaps. Sandor Clegane is raiding along the Trident, it would seem. Your sister
wants his head. It may be that he has joined Dondarrion.
Jaime had heard about Saltpans. By now half the realm had heard. The raid had been
exceptionally savage. Women raped and mutilated, children butchered in their mothers arms,
half the town put to the torch. Randyll Tarly is at Maidenpool. Let him deal with the outlaws. I
would sooner have you go to Riverrun.
Ser Daven has command there. The Warden of the West. He has no need of me. Lancel does.
As you say, uncle. Jaimes head was pounding to the same beat as the drum. Dead, dead,
dead. You would do well to keep your knights around you.
His uncle gave him a cool stare. Is that a threat, ser?
A threat? The suggestion took him aback. A caution. I only meant... Sandor is dangerous.
I was hanging outlaws and robber knights when you were still shitting in your swaddling
clothes. I am not like to go off and face Clegane and Dondarrion by myself, if that is what you
fear, ser. Not every Lannister is a fool for glory.
Why, nuncle, I believe you are talking about me. Addam Marbrand could deal with these
outlaws just as well as you. So could Brax, Banefort, Plumm, any of these others. But none
would make a good Kings Hand.
Your sister knows my terms. They have not changed. Tell her that, the next time you are in her
bedchamber. Ser Kevan put his heels into his courser and galloped ahead, putting an abrupt end
to their conversation.

Jaime let him go, his missing sword hand twitching. He had hoped against hope that Cersei had
somehow misunderstood, but plainly that was wrong. He knows about the two of us. About
Tommen and Myrcella. And Cersei knows he knows. Ser Kevan was a Lannister of Casterly
Rock. He could not believe that she would ever do him harm, but... I was wrong about Tyrion,
why not about Cersei? When sons were killing fathers, what was there to stop a niece from
ordering an uncle slain? An inconvenient uncle, who knows too much. Though perhaps Cersei
was hoping that the Hound might do her work for her. If Sandor Clegane cut down Ser Kevan,
she would not need to bloody her own hands. And he will, if they should meet. Kevan Lannister
had once been a stout man with a sword, but he was no longer young, and the Hound...
The column had caught up to him. As his cousin rode past, flanked by his two septons, Jaime
called out to him. Lancel. Coz. I wanted to congratulate you upon your marriage. I only regret
that my duties do not permit me to attend.
His Grace must be protected.
And will be. Still, I hate to miss your bedding. It is your first marriage and her second, I
understand. Im sure my lady will be pleased to show you what goes where.
The bawdy remark drew a laugh from several nearby lords and a disapproving look from
Lancels septons. His cousin squirmed uncomfortably in the saddle. I know enough to do my
duty as a husband, ser.
Thats just the thing a bride wants on her wedding night, said Jaime. A husband who knows
how to do his duty.
A flush crept up Lancels cheeks. I pray for you, cousin. And for Her Grace the queen. May
the Crone lead her to her wisdom and the Warrior defend her.
Why would Cersei need the Warrior? She has me. Jaime turned his horse about, his white
cloak snapping in the wind. The Imp was lying. Cersei would sooner have Roberts corpse
between her legs than a pious fool like Lancel. Tyrion, you evil bastard, you should have lied
about someone more likely. He galloped past his lord fathers funeral wayn toward the city in the
distance.
The streets of Kings Landing seemed almost deserted as Jaime Lannister made his way back to
the Red Keep atop Aegons High Hill. The soldiers who had crowded the citys gambling dens
and pot shops were largely gone now. Garlan the Gallant had taken half the Tyrell strength back
to Highgarden, and his lady mother and grandmother had gone with him. The other half had
marched south with Mace Tyrell and Mathis Rowan to invest Storms End.
As for the Lannister host, two thousand seasoned veterans remained encamped outside the city
walls, awaiting the arrival of Paxter Redwynes fleet to carry them across Blackwater Bay to
Dragonstone. Lord Stannis appeared to have left only a small garrison behind him when he sailed
north, so two thousand men would be more than sufficient, Cersei had judged.
The rest of the westermen had gone back to their wives and children, to rebuild their homes,
plant their fields, and bring in one last harvest. Cersei had taken Tommen round their camps
before they marched, to let them cheer their little king. She had never looked more beautiful than
she did that day, with a smile on her lips and the autumn sunlight shining on her golden hair.

Whatever else one might say about his sister, she did know how to make men love her when she
cared enough to try.
As Jaime trotted through the castle gates, he came upon two dozen knights riding at a quintain
in the outer yard. Something else I can no longer do, he thought. A lance was heavier and more
cumbersome than a sword, and swords were proving trial enough. He supposed he might try
holding the lance with his left hand, but that would mean shifting his shield to his right arm. In a
tilt, a mans foe was always to the left. A shield on his right arm would prove about as useful as
nipples on his breastplate. No, my jousting days are done, he thought as he dismounted... but all
the same, he stopped to watch a while.
Ser Tallad the Tall lost his mount when the sandbag came around and thumped him in the head.
Strongboar struck the shield so hard he cracked it. Kennos of Kayce finished the destruction. A
new shield was hung for Ser Dermot of the Rainwood. Lambert Turnberry only struck a glancing
blow, but Beardless Jon Bettley, Humfrey Swyft, and Alyn Stackspear all scored solid hits, and
Red Ronnet Connington broke his lance clean. Then the Knight of Flowers mounted up and put
the others all to shame.
Jousting was three-quarters horsemanship, Jaime had always believed. Ser Loras rode superbly,
and handled a lance as if hed been born holding one... which no doubt accounted for his
mothers pinched expression. He puts the point just where he means to put it, and seems to have
the balance of a cat. Perhaps it was not such a fluke that he unhorsed me. It was a shame that he
would never have the chance to try the boy again. He left the whole men to their sport.
Cersei was in her solar in Maegors Holdfast, with Tommen and Lord Merryweathers dark-
haired Myrish wife. The three of them were laughing at Grand Maester Pycelle. Did I miss
some clever jape? Jaime said, as he shoved through the door.
Oh, look, purred Lady Merryweather, your brave brother has returned, Your Grace.
Most of him. The queen was in her cups, Jaime realized. Of late, Cersei always seemed to
have a flagon of wine to hand, she who had once scorned Robert Baratheon for his drinking. He
misliked that, but these days he seemed to mislike everything his sister did. Grand Maester,
she said, share the tidings with the Lord Commander, if you would.
Pycelle looked desperately uncomfortable. There has been a bird, he said. From Stokeworth.
Lady Tanda sends word that her daughter Lollys has been delivered of a strong, healthy son.
And you will never guess what they have named the little bastard, brother.
They wanted to name him Tywin, I recall.
Yes, but I forbade it. I told Falyse that I would not have our fathers noble name bestowed
upon the ill-gotten spawn of some pig boy and a feeble-witted sow.
Lady Stokeworth insists the childs name was not her doing, Grand Maester Pycelle put in.
Perspiration dotted his wrinkled forehead. Lollyss husband made the choice, she writes. This
man Bronn, he... it would seem that he...
Tyrion, ventured Jaime. He named the child Tyrion.
The old man gave a tremulous nod, mopping at his brow with the sleeve of his robe.

Jaime had to laugh. There you are, sweet sister. You have been looking everywhere for
Tyrion, and all the time hes been hiding in Lollyss womb.
Droll. You and Bronn are both so droll. No doubt the bastard is sucking on one of Lollys
Lackwits dugs even as we speak, whilst this sellsword looks on, smirking at his little insolence.
Perhaps this child bears some resemblance to your brother, suggested Lady Merryweather.
He might have been born deformed, or without a nose. She laughed a throaty laugh.
We shall have to send the darling boy a gift, the queen declared. Wont we, Tommen?
We could send him a kitten.
A lion cub, said Lady Merryweather. To rip his little throat out, her smile suggested.
I had a different sort of gift in mind, said Cersei.
A new stepfather, most like. Jaime knew the look in his sisters eyes. He had seen it before,
most recently on the night of Tommens wedding, when she burned the Tower of the Hand. The
green light of the wildfire had bathed the face of the watchers, so they looked like nothing so
much as rotting corpses, a pack of gleeful ghouls, but some of the corpses were prettier than
others. Even in the baleful glow, Cersei had been beautiful to look upon. Shed stood with one
hand on her breast, her lips parted, her green eyes shining. She is crying, Jaime had realized, but
whether it was from grief or ecstasy he could not have said.
The sight had filled him with disquiet, reminding him of Aerys Targaryen and the way a
burning would arouse him. A king has no secrets from his Kingsguard. Relations between Aerys
and his queen had been strained during the last years of his reign. They slept apart and did their
best to avoid each other during the waking hours. But whenever Aerys gave a man to the flames,
Queen Rhaella would have a visitor in the night. The day he burned his mace-and-dagger Hand,
Jaime and Jon Darry had stood at guard outside her bedchamber whilst the king took his
pleasure. Youre hurting me, they had heard Rhaella cry through the oaken door. Youre
hurting me. In some queer way, that had been worse than Lord Chelsteds screaming. We are
sworn to protect her as well, Jaime had finally been driven to say. We are, Darry allowed,
but not from him.
Jaime had only seen Rhaella once after that, the morning of the day she left for Dragonstone.
The queen had been cloaked and hooded as she climbed inside the royal wheelhouse that would
take her down Aegons High Hill to the waiting ship, but he heard her maids whispering after she
was gone. They said the queen looked as if some beast had savaged her, clawing at her thighs
and chewing on her breasts. A crowned beast, Jaime knew.
By the end the Mad King had become so fearful that he would allow no blade in his presence,
save for the swords his Kingsguard wore. His beard was matted and unwashed, his hair a silver-
gold tangle that reached his waist, his fingernails cracked yellow claws nine inches long. Yet still
the blades tormented him, the ones he could never escape, the blades of the Iron Throne. His
arms and legs were always covered with scabs and half-healed cuts.
Let him be king over charred bones and cooked meat, Jaime remembered, studying his sisters
smile. Let him be the king of ashes. Your Grace, he said, might we have a private word?

As you wish. Tommen, it is past time you had your lesson for the day. Go with the Grand
Maester.
Yes, Mother. We are learning about Baelor the Blessed.
Lady Merryweather took her leave as well, kissing the queen on both cheeks. Shall I return for
supper, Your Grace?
I shall be very cross with you if you do not.
Jaime could not help but note the way the Myrish woman moved her hips as she walked. Every
step is a seduction. When the door closed behind her, he cleared his throat and said, First these
Kettleblacks, then Qyburn, now her. Its a queer menagerie you are keeping these days, sweet
sister.
I am growing very fond of Lady Taena. She amuses me.
She is one of Margaery Tyrells companions, Jaime reminded her. Shes informing on you
to the little queen.
Of course she is. Cersei went to the sideboard to fill her cup anew. Margaery was thrilled
when I asked her leave to take Taena on as my companion. You should have heard her. She will
be a sister to you, as shes been to me. Of course you must have her! I have my cousins and my
other ladies. Our little queen does not want me to be lonely.
If you know she is a spy, why take her on?
Margaery is not half so clever as she thinks. She has no notion what a sweet serpent she has in
that Myrish slut. I use Taena to feed the little queen what I want her to know. Some of it is even
true. Cerseis eyes were bright with mischief. And Taena tells me everything Maid Margaery
is doing.
Does she? How much do you know about this woman?
I know she is a mother, with a young son that she wants to rise high in this world. She will do
whatever is required to see that he does. Mothers are all the same. Lady Merryweather may be a
serpent, but she is far from stupid. She knows I can do more for her than Margaery, so she makes
herself useful to me. You would be surprised at all the interesting things shes told me.
What sorts of things?
Cersei sat beneath the window. Did you know that the Queen of Thorns keeps a chest of coins
in her wheelhouse? Old gold from before the Conquest. Should any tradesman be so unwise as to
name a price in golden coins, she pays him with hands from Highgarden, each half the weight of
one of our dragons. What merchant would dare complain of being cheated by Mace Tyrells lady
mother? She sipped her wine, and said, Did you enjoy your little ride?
Our uncle remarked upon your absence.
Our uncles remarks do not concern me.
They should. You could make good use of him. If not at Riverrun or the Rock, then in the
north against Lord Stannis. Father always relied upon Kevan when
Roose Bolton is our Warden of the North. He will deal with Stannis.
Lord Bolton is trapped below the Neck, cut off from the north by the ironmen at Moat Cailin.

Not for long. Boltons bastard son will soon remove that little obstacle. Lord Bolton will have
two thousand Freys to augment his own strength, under Lord Walders sons Hosteen and Aenys.
That should be more than enough to deal with Stannis and a few thousand broken men.
Ser Kevan
will have his hands full at Darry, teaching Lancel how to wipe his arse. Fathers death has
unmanned him. He is an old done man. Daven and Damion will serve us better.
Theyll suffice. Jaime had no quarrel with his cousins. You still require a Hand, however. If
not our uncle, who?
His sister laughed. Not you. Have no fear on that count. Perhaps Taenas husband. His
grandfather was Hand under Aerys.
The horn-of-plenty Hand. Jaime remembered Owen Merryweather well enough; an amiable
man, but ineffectual. As I recall, he did so well that Aerys exiled him and seized his lands.
Robert gave them back. Some, at least. Taena would be pleased if Orton could recover the
rest.
Is this about pleasing some Myrish whore? Here I thought it was about governing the realm.
I govern the realm.
Seven save us all, you do. His sister liked to think of herself as Lord Tywin with teats, but she
was wrong. Their father had been as relentless and implacable as a glacier, where Cersei was all
wildfire, especially when thwarted. She had been giddy as a maiden when she learned that
Stannis had abandoned Dragonstone, certain that he had finally given up the fight and sailed
away to exile. When word came down from the north that he had turned up again at the Wall, her
fury had been fearful to behold. She does not lack for wits, but she has no judgment, and no
patience. You need a strong Hand to help you.
A weak ruler needs a strong Hand, as Aerys needed Father. A strong ruler requires only a
diligent servant to carry out his orders. She swirled her wine. Lord Hallyne might suit. He
would not be the first pyromancer to serve as the Kings Hand.
No. I killed the last one. There is talk that you mean to make Aurane Waters the master of
ships.
Has someone been informing on me? When he did not answer, Cersei tossed her hair back,
and said, Waters is well suited to the office. He has spent half his life on ships.
Half his life? He cannot be more than twenty.
Two-and-twenty, and what of it? Father was not even one-and-twenty when Aerys Targaryen
named him Hand. It is past time Tommen had some young men about him in place of all these
wrinkled greybeards. Aurane is strong and vigorous.
Strong and vigorous and handsome, Jaime thought... . shes been fucking Lancel and Osmund
Kettleblack and Moon Boy for all I know... Paxter Redwyne would be a better choice. He
commands the largest fleet in Westeros. Aurane Waters could command a skiff, but only if you
bought him one.
You are a child, Jaime. Redwyne is Tyrells bannerman, and nephew to that hideous
grandmother of his. I want none of Lord Tyrells creatures on my council.

Tommens council, you mean.
You know what I mean.
Too well. I know that Aurane Waters is a bad idea, and Hallyne is a worse one. As for
Qyburn... gods be good, Cersei, he rode with Vargo Hoat. The Citadel stripped him of his
chain!
The grey sheep. Qyburn has made himself most useful to me. And he is loyal, which is more
than I can say of mine own kin.
The crows will feast upon us all if you go on this way, sweet sister. Cersei, listen to yourself.
You are seeing dwarfs in every shadow and making foes of friends. Uncle Kevan is not your
enemy. I am not your enemy.
Her face twisted in fury. I begged you for your help. I went down on my knees to you, and you
refused me!
My vows...
... did not stop you slaying Aerys. Words are wind. You could have had me, but you chose a
cloak instead. Get out.
Sister...
Get out, I said. I am sick of looking at that ugly stump of yours. Get out! To speed him on his
way, she heaved her wine cup at his head. She missed, but Jaime took the hint.
Evenfall found him sitting alone in the common room of White Sword Tower, with a cup of
Dornish red and the White Book. He was turning pages with the stump of his sword hand when
the Knight of Flowers entered, removed his cloak and swordbelt and hung them on a wall peg
next to Jaimes.
I saw you in the yard today, said Jaime. You rode well.
Better than well, surely. Ser Loras poured himself a cup of wine, and took a seat across the
half-moon table.
A more modest man might have answered My lord is too kind, or I had a good mount.
The horse was adequate, and my lord is as kind as I am modest. Loras waved at the book.
Lord Renly always said that books were for maesters.
This one is for us. The history of every man who has ever worn a white cloak is written here.
I have glanced at it. The shields are pretty. I prefer books with more illuminations. Lord Renly
owned a few with drawings that would turn a septon blind.
Jaime had to smile. Theres none of that here, ser, but the histories will open your eyes. You
would do well to know about the lives of those who went before.
I do. Prince Aemon the Dragonknight, Ser Ryam Redwyne, the Greatheart, Barristan the
Bold...
... Gwayne Corbray, Alyn Connington, the Demon of Darry, aye. You will have heard of
Lucamore Strong as well.
Ser Lucamore the Lusty? Ser Loras seemed amused. Three wives and thirty children, was it?
They cut his cock off. Shall I sing the song for you, my lord?
And Ser Terrence Toyne?

Bedded the kings mistress and died screaming. The lesson is, men who wear white breeches
need to keep them tightly laced.
Gyles Greycloak? Orivel the Open-Handed?
Gyles was a traitor, Orivel a coward. Men who shamed the white cloak. What is my lord
suggesting?
Little and less. Dont take offense where none was meant, ser. How about Long Tom
Costayne?
Ser Loras shook his head.
He was a Kingsguard knight for sixty years.
When was that? Ive never
Ser Donnel of Duskendale, then?
I may have heard the name, but
Addison Hill? The White Owl, Michael Mertyns? Jeffory Norcross? They called him
Neveryield. Red Robert Flowers? What can you tell me of them?
Flowers is a bastard name. So is Hill.
Yet both men rose to command the Kingsguard. Their tales are in the book. Rolland Darklyn is
in here too. The youngest man ever to serve in the Kingsguard, until me. He was given his cloak
on a battlefield and died within an hour of donning it.
He cant have been very good.
Good enough. He died, but his king lived. A lot of brave men have worn the white cloak. Most
have been forgotten.
Most deserve to be forgotten. The heroes will always be remembered. The best.
The best and the worst. So one of us is like to live in song. And a few who were a bit of
both. Like him. He tapped the page he had been reading.
Who? Ser Loras craned his head around to see. Ten black pellets on a scarlet field. I do not
know those arms.
They belonged to Criston Cole, who served the first Viserys and the second Aegon. Jaime
closed the White Book. They called him Kingmaker.

CERSEI
Three wretched fools with a leather sack, the queen thought as they sank to their knees
before her. The look of them did not encourage her. I suppose there is always a chance.
Your Grace, said Qyburn quietly, the small council...
... will await my pleasure. It may be that we can bring them word of a traitors death. Off
across the city, the bells of Baelors Sept sang their song of mourning. No bells will ring for you,
Tyrion, Cersei thought. I shall dip your head in tar and give your twisted body to the dogs. Off
your knees, she told the would-be lords. Show me what youve brought me.
They rose; three ugly men, and ragged. One had a boil on his neck, and none had washed in half
a year. The prospect of raising such to lordship amused her. I could seat them next to Margaery
at feasts. When the chief fool undid the drawstring on the sack and plunged his hand inside, the
smell of decay filled her audience chamber like some rank rose. The head he pulled out was
grey-green and crawling with maggots. It smells like Father. Dorcas gasped, and Jocelyn covered
her mouth and retched.
The queen considered her prize, unflinching. Youve killed the wrong dwarf, she said at last,
grudging every word.
We never did, one of the fools dared to say. This is got to be him, ser. A dwarf, see. Hes
rotted some, is all.
He has also grown a new nose, Cersei observed. A rather bulbous one, Id say. Tyrions
nose was hacked off in a battle.
The three fools exchanged a look. No one told us, said the one with head in hand. This one
come walking along as bold as you please, some ugly dwarf, so we thought...
He said he were a sparrow, the one with the boil added, and you said he was lying. That
was directed at the third man.
The queen was angry to think that she had kept her small council waiting for this mummers
farce. You have wasted my time and slain an innocent man. I should have your own heads off.
But if she did, the next man might hesitate and let the Imp slip the net. She would pile dead
dwarfs ten feet high before she let that happen. Remove yourselves from my sight.
Aye, Your Grace, said the boil. We beg your pardons.
Do you want the head? asked the man who held it.
Give it to Ser Meryn. No, in the sack, you lackwit. Yes. Ser Osmund, see them out.
Trant removed the head and Kettleblack the headsmen, leaving only Lady Jocelyns breakfast
as evidence of their visit. Clean that up at once, the queen commanded her. This was the third
head that had been delivered to her. At least this one was a dwarf. The last had simply been an
ugly child.
Someone will find the dwarf, never fear, Ser Osmund assured her. And when they do, well
kill him good.
Will you? Last night Cersei had dreamed of the old woman, with her pebbly jowls and croaking
voice. Maggy the Frog, they had called her in Lannisport. If Father had known what she said to

me, he would have had her tongue out. Cersei had never told anyone, though, not even Jaime.
Melara said that if we never spoke about her prophecies, we would forget them. She said that a
forgotten prophecy couldnt come true.
I have informers sniffing after the Imp everywhere, Your Grace, said Qyburn. He had garbed
himself in something very like maesters robes, but white instead of grey, immaculate as the
cloaks of the Kingsguard. Whorls of gold decorated his hem, sleeves, and stiff high collar, and a
golden sash was tied about his waist. Oldtown, Gulltown, Dorne, even the Free Cities.
Wheresoever he might run, my whisperers will find him.
You assume he left Kings Landing. He could be hiding in Baelors Sept for all we know,
swinging on the bell ropes to make that awful din. Cersei made a sour face and let Dorcas help
her to her feet. Come, my lord. My council awaits. She took Qyburn by the arm as they made
their way down the stairs. Have you attended to that little task I set you?
I have, Your Grace. I am sorry that it took so long. Such a large head. It took the beetles many
hours to clean the flesh. By way of pardon, I have lined a box of ebony and silver with felt, to
make a fitting presentation for the skull.
A cloth sack would serve as well. Prince Doran wants his head. He wont give a fig what sort
of box it comes in.
The pealing of the bells was louder in the yard. He was only a High Septon. How long must we
endure this? The ringing was more melodious than the Mountains screams had been, but...
Qyburn seemed to sense what she was thinking. The bells will stop at sunset, Your Grace.
That will be a great relief. How can you know?
Knowing is the nature of my service.
Varys had all of us believing he was irreplaceable. What fools we were. Once the queen let it
become known that Qyburn had taken the eunuchs place, the usual vermin had wasted no time
in making themselves known to him, to trade their whispers for a few coins. It was the silver all
along, not the Spider. Qyburn will serve us just as well. She was looking forward to the look on
Pycelles face when Qyburn took his seat.
A knight of the Kingsguard was always posted outside the doors of the council chambers when
the small council was in session. Today it was Ser Boros Blount. Ser Boros, the queen said
pleasantly, you look quite grey this morning. Something you ate, perchance? Jaime had made
him the kings food taster. A tasty task, but shameful for a knight. Blount hated it. His sagging
jowls quivered as he held the door for them.
The councillors quieted as she entered. Lord Gyles coughed by way of greeting, loud enough to
wake Pycelle. The others rose, mouthing pleasantries. Cersei allowed herself the faintest of
smiles. My lords, I know you will forgive my lateness.
We are here to serve Your Grace, said Ser Harys Swyft. It is our pleasure to anticipate your
coming.
You all know Lord Qyburn, I am sure.
Grand Maester Pycelle did not disappoint her. Lord Qyburn? he managed, purpling. Your
Grace, this... a maester swears sacred vows, to hold no lands or lordships...

Your Citadel took away his chain, Cersei reminded him. If he is not a maester, he cannot be
held to a maesters vows. We called the eunuch lord as well, you may recall.
Pycelle sputtered. This man is... he is unfit...
Do not presume to speak to me of fitness. Not after the stinking mockery you made of my lord
fathers corpse.
Your Grace cannot think... He raised a spotted hand, as if to ward off a blow. The silent
sisters removed Lord Tywins bowels and organs, drained his blood... every care was taken... his
body was stuffed with salts and fragrant herbs...
Oh, spare me the disgusting details. I smelled the results of your care. Lord Qyburns healing
arts saved my brothers life, and I do not doubt that he will serve the king more ably than that
simpering eunuch. My lord, you know your fellow councillors?
I would be a poor informer if I did not, Your Grace. Qyburn seated himself between Orton
Merryweather and Gyles Rosby.
My councillors. Cersei had uprooted every rose, and all those beholden to her uncle and her
brothers. In their places were men whose loyalty would be to her. She had even given them new
styles, borrowed from the Free Cities; the queen would have no masters at court beside herself.
Orton Merryweather was her justiciar, Gyles Rosby her lord treasurer. Aurane Waters, the
dashing young Bastard of Driftmark, would be her grand admiral.
And for her Hand, Ser Harys Swyft.
Soft, bald, and obsequious, Swyft had an absurd little white puff of beard where most men had
a chin. The blue bantam rooster of his House was worked across the front of his plush yellow
doublet in beads of lapis. Over that he wore a mantle of blue velvet decorated with a hundred
golden hands. Ser Harys had been thrilled by his appointment, too dim to realize that he was
more hostage than Hand. His daughter was her uncles wife, and Kevan loved his chinless lady,
flat-chested and chicken-legged as she was. So long as she had Ser Harys in hand, Kevan
Lannister must needs think twice about opposing her. To be sure, a good-father is not the ideal
hostage, but better a flimsy shield than none.
Will the king be joining us? asked Orton Merryweather.
My son is playing with his little queen. For the moment, his idea of kingship is stamping
papers with the royal seal. His Grace is still too young to comprehend affairs of state.
And our valiant Lord Commander?
Ser Jaime is at his armorers being fitted for a hand. I know we were all tired of that ugly
stump. And I daresay he would find these proceedings as tiresome as Tommen. Aurane Waters
chuckled at that. Good, Cersei thought, the more they laugh, the less he is a threat. Let them
laugh. Do we have wine?
We do, Your Grace. Orton Merryweather was not a comely man, with his big lumpish nose
and shock of unruly reddish-orange hair, but he was never less than courteous. We have
Dornish red and Arbor gold, and a fine sweet hippocras from Highgarden.
The gold, I think. I find Dornish wines as sour as the Dornish. As Merryweather filled her
cup, Cersei said, I suppose we had as well begin with them.

Grand Maester Pycelles lips were still quivering, yet somehow he found his tongue. As you
command. Prince Doran has taken his brothers unruly bastards into custody, yet Sunspear still
seethes. The prince writes that he cannot hope to calm the waters until he receives the justice that
was promised him.
To be sure. A tiresome creature, this prince. His long wait is almost done. I am sending
Balon Swann to Sunspear, to deliver him the head of Gregor Clegane. Ser Balon would have
another task as well, but that part was best left unsaid.
Ah. Ser Harys Swyft fumbled at his funny little beard with thumb and forefinger. He is dead
then? Ser Gregor?
I would think so, my lord, Aurane Waters said dryly. I am told that removing the head from
the body is often mortal.
Cersei favored him with a smile; she liked a bit of wit, so long as she was not its target. Ser
Gregor perished of his wounds, just as Grand Maester Pycelle foretold.
Pycelle harrumphed and eyed Qyburn sourly. The spear was poisoned. No man could have
saved him.
So you said. I recall it well. The queen turned to her Hand. What were you speaking of when
I arrived, Ser Harys?
Sparrows, Your Grace. Septon Raynard says there may be as many as two thousand in the city,
and more arriving every day. Their leaders preach of doom and demon worship...
Cersei took a taste of wine. Very nice. And long past time, wouldnt you agree? What would
you call this red god that Stannis worships, if not a demon? The Faith should oppose such evil.
Qyburn had reminded her of that, the clever man. Our late High Septon let too much pass, I
fear. Age had dimmed his sight and sapped his strength.
He was an old done man, Your Grace. Qyburn smiled at Pycelle. His passing should not
have surprised us. No man can ask for more than to die peacefully in his sleep, full of years.
No, said Cersei, but we must hope that his successor is more vigorous. My friends upon the
other hill tell me that it will most like be Torbert or Raynard.
Grand Maester Pycelle cleared his throat. I have friends among the Most Devout as well, and
they speak of Septon Ollidor.
Do not discount this man Luceon, Qyburn said. Last night he feted thirty of the Most Devout
on suckling pig and Arbor gold, and by day he hands out hardbread to the poor to prove his
piety.
Aurane Waters seemed as bored as Cersei by all this prattle about septons. Seen up close, his
hair was more silvery than gold, and his eyes were grey-green where Prince Rhaegars had been
purple. Even so, the resemblance... She wondered if Waters would shave his beard for her.
Though he was ten years her junior, he wanted her; Cersei could see it in the way he looked at
her. Men had been looking at her that way since her breasts began to bud. Because I was so
beautiful, they said, but Jaime was beautiful as well, and they never looked at him that way.
When she was small she would sometimes don her brothers clothing as a lark. She was always

startled by how differently men treated her when they thought that she was Jaime. Even Lord
Tywin himself...
Pycelle and Merryweather were still quibbling about who the new High Septon was like to be.
One will serve as well as another, the queen announced abruptly, but whosoever dons the
crystal crown must pronounce an anathema upon the Imp. This last High Septon had been
conspicuously silent regarding Tyrion. As for these pink sparrows, so long as they preach no
treason they are the Faiths problem, not ours.
Lord Orton and Ser Harys murmured agreement. Gyles Rosbys attempt to do the same
dissolved into a fit of coughing. Cersei turned away in distaste as he was hacking up a gob of
bloody phlegm. Maester, have you brought the letter from the Vale?
I have, Your Grace. Pycelle plucked it from his pile of papers and smoothed it out. It is a
declaration, rather than a letter. Signed at Runestone by Bronze Yohn Royce, Lady Waynwood,
Lords Hunter, Redfort, and Belmore, and Symond Templeton, the Knight of Ninestars. All have
affixed their seals. They write
A deal of rubbish. My lords may read the letter if they wish. Royce and these others are
massing men below the Eyrie. They mean to remove Littlefinger as Lord Protector of the Vale,
forcibly if need be. The question is, ought we allow this?
Does Lord Baelish seek our help? asked Harys Swyft.
Not as yet. In truth, he seems quite unconcerned. His last letter mentions the rebels only
briefly before beseeching me to ship him some old tapestries of Roberts.
Ser Harys fingered his chin beard. And these lords of the declaration, do they appeal to the
king to take a hand?
They do not.
Then... mayhaps we need do nothing.
A war in the Vale would be most tragic, said Pycelle.
War? Orton Merryweather laughed. Lord Baelish is a most amusing man, but one does not
fight a war with witticisms. I doubt there will be bloodshed. And does it matter who is regent for
little Lord Robert, so long as the Vale remits its taxes?
No, Cersei decided. If truth be told, Littlefinger had been more use at court. He had a gift for
finding gold, and never coughed. Lord Orton has convinced me. Maester Pycelle, instruct these
Lords Declarant that no harm must come to Petyr. Elsewise, the crown is content with whatever
dispositions they might make for the governance of the Vale during Robert Arryns minority.
Very good, Your Grace.
Might we discuss the fleet? asked Aurane Waters. Fewer than a dozen of our ships survived
the inferno on the Blackwater. We must needs restore our strength at sea.
Merryweather nodded. Strength at sea is most essential.
Could we make use of the ironmen? asked Orton Merryweather. The enemy of our enemy?
What would the Seastone Chair want of us as the price of an alliance?
They want the north, Grand Maester Pycelle said, which our queens noble father promised
to House Bolton.

How inconvenient, said Merryweather. Still, the north is large. The lands could be divided.
It need not be a permanent arrangement. Bolton might consent, so long as we assure him that our
strength will be his once Stannis is destroyed.
Balon Greyjoy is dead, I had heard, said Ser Harys Swyft. Do we know who rules the isles
now? Did Lord Balon have a son?
Leo? coughed Lord Gyles. Theo?
Theon Greyjoy was raised at Winterfell, a ward of Eddard Stark, Qyburn said. He is not like
to be a friend of ours.
I had heard he was slain, said Merryweather.
Was there only one son? Ser Harys Swyft tugged upon his chin beard. Brothers. There were
brothers. Were there not?
Varys would have known, Cersei thought with irritation. I do not propose to climb in bed with
that sorry pack of squids. Their turn will come, once we have dealt with Stannis. What we
require is our own fleet.
I propose we build new dromonds, said Aurane Waters. Ten, to start with.
Where is the coin to come from? asked Pycelle.
Lord Gyles took that as an invitation to begin coughing again. He brought up more pink spittle
and dabbed it away with a square of red silk. There is no... he managed, before the coughing
ate his words. ... no... we do not...
Ser Harys proved swift enough at least to grasp the meaning between the coughs. The crown
incomes have never been greater, he objected. Ser Kevan told me so himself.
Lord Gyles coughed. ... expenses... gold cloaks...
Cersei had heard his objections before. Our lord treasurer is trying to say that we have too
many gold cloaks and too little gold. Rosbys coughing had begun to vex her. Perhaps Garth the
Gross would not have been so ill. Though large, the crown incomes are not large enough to
keep abreast of Roberts debts. Accordingly, I have decided to defer our repayment of the sums
owed the Holy Faith and the Iron Bank of Braavos until wars end. The new High Septon would
doubtless wring his holy hands, and the Braavosi would squeak and squawk at her, but what of
it? The monies saved will be used for the building of our new fleet.
Your Grace is prudent, said Lord Merryweather. This is a wise measure. And needed, until
the war is done. I concur.
And I, said Ser Harys.
Your Grace, Pycelle said in a quavering voice, this will cause more trouble than you know, I
fear. The Iron Bank...
... remains on Braavos, far across the sea. They shall have their gold, maester. A Lannister
pays his debts.
The Braavosi have a saying too. Pycelles jeweled chain clinked softly. The Iron Bank will
have its due, they say.
The Iron Bank will have its due when I say they will. Until such time, the Iron Bank will wait
respectfully. Lord Waters, commence the building of your dromonds.

Very good, Your Grace.
Ser Harys shuffled through some papers. The next matter... we have had a letter from Lord
Frey putting forth some claims...
How many lands and honors does that man want? snapped the queen. His mother must have
had three teats.
My lords may not know, said Qyburn, but in the winesinks and pot shops of this city, there
are those who suggest that the crown might have been somehow complicit in Lord Walders
crime.
The other councillors stared at him uncertainly. Do you refer to the Red Wedding? asked
Aurane Waters. Crime? said Ser Harys. Pycelle cleared his throat noisily. Lord Gyles coughed.
These sparrows are especially outspoken, warned Qyburn. The Red Wedding was an affront
to all the laws of gods and men, they say, and those who had a hand in it are damned.
Cersei was not slow to take his meaning. Lord Walder must soon face the Fathers judgment.
He is very old. Let the sparrows spit upon his memory. It has nought to do with us.
No, said Ser Harys. No, said Lord Merryweather. No one could think so, said Pycelle.
Lord Gyles coughed.
A little spittle on Lord Walders tomb is not like to disturb the grave worms, Qyburn agreed,
but it would also be useful if someone were to be punished for the Red Wedding. A few Frey
heads would do much to mollify the north.
Lord Walder will never sacrifice his own, said Pycelle.
No, mused Cersei, but his heirs may be less squeamish. Lord Walder will soon do us the
courtesy of dying, we can hope. What better way for the new Lord of the Crossing to rid himself
of inconvenient half brothers, disagreeable cousins, and scheming sisters than by naming them
the culprits?
Whilst we await Lord Walders death, there is another matter, said Aurane Waters. The
Golden Company has broken its contract with Myr. Around the docks Ive heard men say that
Lord Stannis has hired them and is bringing them across the sea.
What would he pay them with? asked Merryweather. Snow? They are called the Golden
Company. How much gold does Stannis have?
Little enough, Cersei assured him. Lord Qyburn has spoken to the crew of that Myrish
galley in the bay. They claim the Golden Company is making for Volantis. If they mean to cross
to Westeros, they are marching in the wrong direction.
Perhaps they grew weary of fighting on the losing side, suggested Lord Merryweather.
There is that as well, agreed the queen. Only a blind man could fail to see our war is all but
won. Lord Tyrell has Storms End invested. Riverrun is besieged by the Freys and my cousin
Daven, our new Warden of the West. Lord Redwynes ships have passed through the Straits of
Tarth and are moving swiftly up the coast. Only a few fishing boats remain on Dragonstone to
oppose Redwynes landing. The castle may hold for some time, but once we have the port we
can cut the garrison off from the sea. Then only Stannis himself will remain to vex us.

If Lord Janos can be believed, he is trying to make common cause with the wildlings, warned
Grand Maester Pycelle.
Savages in skins, declared Lord Merryweather. Lord Stannis must be desperate indeed, to
seek such allies.
Desperate and foolish, the queen agreed. The northmen hate the wildlings. Roose Bolton
should have no trouble winning them to our cause. A few have already joined up with his bastard
son to help him clear the wretched ironmen from Moat Cailin and clear the way for Lord Bolton
to return. Umber, Ryswell... I forget the other names. Even White Harbor is on the point of
joining us. Its lord has agreed to marry both his granddaughters to our friends of Frey and open
his port to our ships.
I thought we had no ships, Ser Harys said, confused.
Wyman Manderly was a loyal bannerman to Eddard Stark, said Grand Maester Pycelle. Can
such a man be trusted?
No one can be trusted. Hes a fat old man, and frightened. However, he is proving stubborn on
one point. He insists that he will not bend the knee until his heir has been returned to him.
Do we have this heir? asked Ser Harys.
He will be at Harrenhal, if he is still alive. Gregor Clegane took him captive. The Mountain
had not always been gentle with his prisoners, even those worth a goodly ransom. If he is dead,
I suppose we will need to send Lord Manderly the heads of those who killed him, with our most
sincere apologies. If one head was enough to appease a prince of Dorne, a bag of them should
be more than adequate for a fat northman wrapped in sealskins.
Will not Lord Stannis seek to win the allegiance of White Harbor as well? asked Grand
Maester Pycelle.
Oh, he has tried. Lord Manderly has sent his letters on to us and replied with evasions. Stannis
demands White Harbors swords and silver, for which he offers... well, nothing. One day she
must light a candle to the Stranger for carrying Renly off and leaving Stannis. If it had been the
other way around, her life would have been harder. Just this morning there was another bird.
Stannis has sent his onion smuggler to treat with White Harbor on his behalf. Manderly has
clapped the wretch inside a cell. He asks us what he should do with him.
Send him here, that we might question him, suggested Lord Merryweather. The man might
know much of value.
Let him die, said Qyburn. His death will be a lesson to the north, to show them what
becomes of traitors.
I quite agree, the queen said. I have instructed Lord Manderly to have his head off forthwith.
That should put an end to any chance of White Harbor supporting Stannis.
Stannis will need another Hand, observed Aurane Waters with a chuckle. The turnip knight,
perhaps?
A turnip knight? said Ser Harys Swyft, confused. Who is this man? I have not heard of
him.
Waters did not reply, except to roll his eyes.

What if Lord Manderly should refuse? asked Merryweather.
He dare not. The onion knights head is the coin hell need to buy his sons life. Cersei
smiled. The fat old fool may have been loyal to the Starks in his own way, but with the wolves
of Winterfell extinguished
Your Grace has forgotten the Lady Sansa, said Pycelle.
The queen bristled. I most certainly have not forgotten that little she-wolf. She refused to say
the girls name. I ought to have shown her to the black cells as the daughter of a traitor, but
instead I made her part of mine own household. She shared my hearth and hall, played with my
own children. I fed her, dressed her, tried to make her a little less ignorant about the world, and
how did she repay me for my kindness? She helped murder my son. When we find the Imp, we
will find the Lady Sansa too. She is not dead... but before I am done with her, I promise you, she
will be singing to the Stranger, begging for his kiss.
An awkward silence followed. Have they all swallowed their tongues? Cersei thought, with
irritation. It was enough to make her wonder why she bothered with a council.
In any case, the queen went on, Lord Eddards younger daughter is with Lord Bolton, and
will be wed to his son Ramsay as soon as Moat Cailin has fallen. So long as the girl played her
role well enough to cement their claim to Winterfell, neither of the Boltons would much care that
she was actually some stewards whelp tricked up by Littlefinger. If the north must have a
Stark, well give them one. She let Lord Merryweather fill her cup once again. Another
problem has arisen on the Wall, however. The brothers of the Nights Watch have taken leave of
their wits and chosen Ned Starks bastard son to be their Lord Commander.
Snow, the boy is called, Pycelle said unhelpfully.
I glimpsed him once at Winterfell, the queen said, though the Starks did their best to hide
him. He looks very like his father. Her husbands by-blows had his look as well, though at least
Robert had the grace to keep them out of sight. Once, after that sorry business with the cat, he
had made some noises about bringing some baseborn daughter of his to court. Do as you
please, shed told him, but you may find that the city is not a healthy place for a growing girl.
The bruise those words had won her had been hard to hide from Jaime, but they heard no more
about the bastard girl. Catelyn Tully was a mouse, or she would have smothered this Jon Snow in
his cradle. Instead, shes left the filthy task to me. Snow shares Lord Eddards taste for treason
too, she said. The father would have handed the realm to Stannis. The son has given him lands
and castles.
The Nights Watch is sworn to take no part in the wars of the Seven Kingdoms, Pycelle
reminded them. For thousands of years the black brothers have upheld that tradition.
Until now, said Cersei. The bastard boy has written us to avow that the Nights Watch takes
no side, but his actions give the lie to his words. He has given Stannis food and shelter, yet has
the insolence to plead with us for arms and men.
An outrage, declared Lord Merryweather. We cannot allow the Nights Watch to join its
strength to that of Lord Stannis.

We must declare this Snow a traitor and a rebel, agreed Ser Harys Swyft. The black brothers
must remove him.
Grand Maester Pycelle nodded ponderously. I propose that we inform Castle Black that no
more men will be sent to them until such time as Snow is gone.
Our new dromonds will need oarsmen, said Aurane Waters. Let us instruct the lords to send
their poachers and thieves to me henceforth, instead of to the Wall.
Qyburn leaned forward with a smile. The Nights Watch defends us all from snarks and
grumkins. My lords, I say that we must help the brave black brothers.
Cersei gave him a sharp look. What are you saying?
This, Qyburn said. For years now, the Nights Watch has begged for men. Lord Stannis has
answered their plea. Can King Tommen do less? His Grace should send the Wall a hundred men.
To take the black, ostensibly, but in truth...
... to remove Jon Snow from the command, Cersei finished, delighted. I knew I was right to
want him on my council. That is just what we shall do. She laughed. If this bastard boy is truly
his fathers son, he will not suspect a thing. Perhaps he will even thank me, before the blade
slides between his ribs. It will need to be done carefully, to be sure. Leave the rest to me, my
lords. This was how an enemy should be dealt with: with a dagger, not a declaration. We have
done good work today, my lords. I thank you. Is there aught else?
One last thing, Your Grace, said Aurane Waters, in an apologetic tone. I hesitate to take up
the councils time with trifles, but there has been some queer talk heard along the docks of late.
Sailors from the east. They speak of dragons...
... and manticores, no doubt, and bearded snarks? Cersei chuckled. Come back to me when
you hear talk of dwarfs, my lord. She stood, to signal that the meeting was at an end.
A blustery autumn wind was blowing when Cersei left the council chambers, and bells of
Blessed Baelor still sang their song of mourning off across the city. In the yard twoscore knights
were hammering each other with sword and shield, adding to the din. Ser Boros Blount escorted
the queen back to her apartments, where she found Lady Merryweather chuckling with Jocelyn
and Dorcas. What is it you all find so amusing?
The Redwyne twins, said Taena. Both of them have fallen in love with Lady Margaery.
They used to fight over which would be the next Lord of the Arbor. Now both of them want to
join the Kingsguard, just to be near the little queen.
The Redwynes have always had more freckles than wits. It was a useful thing to know,
though. If Horror or Slobber were to be found abed with Margaery... Cersei wondered if the little
queen liked freckles. Dorcas, fetch me Ser Osney Kettleblack.
Dorcas blushed. As you command.
When the girl was gone, Taena Merryweather gave the queen a quizzical look. Why did she
turn so red?
Love. It was Cerseis turn to laugh. She fancies our Ser Osney. He was the youngest
Kettleblack, the clean-shaved one. Though he had the same black hair, hooked nose, and easy

smile as his brother Osmund, one cheek bore three long scratches, courtesy of one of Tyrions
whores. She likes his scars, I think.
Lady Merryweathers dark eyes shone with mischief. Just so. Scars make a man look
dangerous, and danger is exciting.
You shock me, my lady, the queen said, teasing. If danger excites you so, why wed Lord
Orton? We all love him, it is true, but still... Petyr had once remarked that the horn of plenty
that adorned House Merryweathers arms suited Lord Orton admirably, since he had carrot-
colored hair, a nose as bulbous as a beetroot, and pease porridge for wits.
Taena laughed. My lord is more bountiful than dangerous, this is so. Yet... I hope Your Grace
will not think the less of me, but I did not come a maid entire to Ortons bed.
You are all whores in the Free Cities, arent you? That was good to know; one day, she might
be able to make use of it. And pray, who was this lover who was so... full of danger?
Taenas olive skin turned even darker as she blushed. Oh, I should not have spoken. Your
Grace will keep my secret, yes?
Men have scars, women mysteries. Cersei kissed her cheek. I will have his name out of you
soon enough.
When Dorcas returned with Ser Osney Kettleblack, the queen dismissed her ladies. Come sit
with me by the window, Ser Osney. Will you take a cup of wine? She poured for them herself.
Your cloak is threadbare. I have a mind to put you in a new one.
What, a white one? Whos died?
No one, as yet, the queen said. Is that your wish, to join your brother Osmund in our
Kingsguard?
Id rather be the queens guard, if it please Your Grace. When Osney grinned, the scars on his
cheek turned bright red.
Cerseis fingers traced their path across his cheek. You have a bold tongue, ser. You will make
me forget myself again.
Good. Ser Osney caught her hand and kissed her fingers roughly. My sweet queen.
You are a wicked man, the queen whispered, and no true knight, I think. She let him touch
her breasts through the silk of her gown. Enough.
It isnt. I want you.
Youve had me.
Only once. He grabbed her left breast again and gave it a clumsy squeeze that reminded her
of Robert.
One good night for one good knight. You did me valiant service, and you had your reward.
Cersei walked her fingers up his laces. She could feel him stiffening through his breeches. Was
that a new horse you were riding in the yard yestermorn?
The black stallion? Aye. A gift from my brother Osfryd. Midnight, I call him.
How wonderfully original. A fine mount for a battle. For pleasure, though, there is nothing to
compare to a gallop on a spirited young filly. She gave him a smile and a squeeze. Tell me
true. Do you think our little queen is pretty?

Ser Osney drew back, wary. I suppose. For a girl. Id sooner have a woman.
Why not both? she whispered. Pluck the little rose for me, and you will not find me to be
ungrateful.
The little... Margaery, you mean? Ser Osneys ardor was wilting in his breeches. Shes the
kings wife. Wasnt there some Kingsguard who lost his head for bedding the kings wife?
Ages ago. She was his kings mistress, not his wife, and his head was the only thing he did
not lose. Aegon dismembered him piece by piece, and made the woman watch. Cersei did not
want Osney dwelling on that ancient unpleasantness, however. Tommen is not Aegon the
Unworthy. Have no fear, he will do as I bid him. I mean for Margaery to lose her head, not you.
That gave him pause. Her maidenhead, you mean?
That too. Assuming she has still one. She traced his scars again. Unless you think Margaery
would prove unresponsive to your... charms?
Osney gave her a wounded look. She likes me well enough. Them cousins of hers are always
teasing with me about my nose. How big it is, and all. The last time Megga did that, Margaery
told them to stop and said I had a lovely face.
There you are, then.
There I am, the man agreed, in a doubtful tone, but where am I going to be if she... if I...
after we... ?
... do the deed? Cersei gave him a barbed smile. Lying with a queen is treason. Tommen
would have no choice but to send you to the Wall.
The Wall? he said with dismay.
It was all she could do not to laugh. No, best not. Men hate being laughed at. A black cloak
would go well with your eyes, and that black hair of yours.
No one returns from the Wall.
You will. All you need to do is kill a boy.
What boy?
A bastard boy in league with Stannis. Hes young and green, and youll have a hundred men.
Kettleblack was afraid, she could smell it on him, but he was too proud to own up to that fear.
Men are all alike. Ive killed more boys than I can count, he insisted. Once this boy is dead,
Id get my pardon from the king?
That, and a lordship. Unless Snows brothers hang you first. A queen must have a consort.
One who knows no fear.
Lord Kettleblack? A slow smile spread across his face, and his scars flamed red. Aye, I like
the sound o that. A lordly lord...
... and fit to bed a queen.
He frowned. The Wall is cold.
And I am warm. Cersei put her arms about his neck. Bed a girl and kill a boy and I am
yours. Do you have the courage?
Osney thought a moment before he nodded. I am your man.

You are, ser. She kissed him, and let him have a little taste of tongue before she broke away.
Enough for now. The rest must wait. Will you dream of me tonight?
Aye. His voice was hoarse.
And when youre abed with our Maid Margaery? she asked him, teasing. When youre in
her, will you dream of me then?
I will, swore Osney Kettleblack.
Good.
After he was gone, Cersei summoned Jocelyn to brush her hair out whilst she slipped off her
shoes and stretched like a cat. I was made for this, she told herself. It was the sheer elegance of it
that pleased her most. Even Mace Tyrell would not dare defend his darling daughter if she was
caught in the act with the likes of Osney Kettleblack, and neither Stannis Baratheon nor Jon
Snow would have cause to wonder why Osney was being sent to the Wall. She would see to it
that Ser Osmund was the one to discover his brother with the little queen; that way the loyalty of
the other two Kettleblacks need not be impugned. If Father could only see me now, he would not
be so quick to speak of marrying me off again. A pity hes so dead. Him and Robert, Jon Arryn,
Ned Stark, Renly Baratheon, all dead. Only Tyrion remains, and not for long.
That night the queen summoned Lady Merryweather to her bedchamber. Will you take a cup
of wine? she asked her.
A small one. The Myrish woman laughed. A big one.
On the morrow I want you to pay a call on my good-daughter, Cersei said as Dorcas was
dressing her for bed.
Lady Margaery is always happy to see me.
I know. The queen did not fail to note the style that Taena used when referring to Tommens
little wife. Tell her Ive sent seven beeswax candles to the Baelors Sept in memory of our dear
High Septon.
Taena laughed. If so, she will send seven-and-seventy candles of her own, so as not to be
outmourned.
I will be very cross if she does not, the queen said, smiling. Tell her also that she has a secret
admirer, a knight so smitten with her beauty that he cannot sleep at night.
Might I ask Your Grace which knight? Mischief sparkled in Taenas big dark eyes. Could it
be Ser Osney?
It could be, the queen said, but do not offer up that name freely. Make her worm it out of
you. Will you do that?
If it please you. That is all I wish, Your Grace.
Outside a cold wind was rising. They stayed up late into the morning, drinking Arbor gold and
telling one another tales. Taena got quite drunk and Cersei pried the name of her secret lover
from her. He was a Myrish sea captain, half a pirate, with black hair to the shoulders and a scar
that ran across his face from chin to ear. A hundred times I told him no, and he said yes, the
other woman told her, until finally I was saying yes as well. He was not the sort of man to be
denied.

I know the sort, the queen said with a wry smile.
Has Your Grace ever known a man like that, I wonder?
Robert, she lied, thinking of Jaime.
Yet when she closed her eyes, it was the other brother that she dreamt of, and the three
wretched fools with whom she had begun her day. In the dream it was Tyrions head they
brought her in their sack. She had it bronzed, and kept it in her chamber pot.

THE IRON CAPTAIN
The wind was blowing from the north as the Iron Victory came round the point and
entered the holy bay called Naggas Cradle.
Victarion joined Nute the Barber at her prow. Ahead loomed the sacred shore of Old Wyk and
the grassy hill above it, where the ribs of Nagga rose from the earth like the trunks of great white
trees, as wide around as a dromonds mast and twice as tall.
The bones of the Grey Kings Hall. Victarion could feel the magic of this place. Balon stood
beneath those bones, when first he named himself a king, he recalled. He swore to win us back
our freedoms, and Tarle the Thrice-Drowned placed a driftwood crown upon his head.
BALON! they cried. BALON! BALON KING!
They will shout your name as loud, said Nute.
Victarion nodded, though he did not share the Barbers certainty. Balon had three sons, and a
daughter he loved well.
He had said as much to his captains at Moat Cailin, when first they urged him to claim the
Seastone Chair. Balons sons are dead, Red Ralf Stonehouse had argued, and Asha is a
woman. You were your brothers strong right arm, you must pick up the sword that he let fall.
When Victarion reminded them that Balon had commanded him to hold the Moat against the
northmen, Ralf Kenning said, The wolves are broken, lord. What good to win this swamp and
lose the isles? And Ralf the Limper added, The Crows Eye has been too long away. He knows
us not.
Euron Greyjoy, King of the Isles and the North. The thought woke an old rage in his heart, but
still...
Words are wind, Victarion told them, and the only good wind is that which fills our sails.
Would you have me fight the Crows Eye? Brother against brother, ironborn against ironborn?
Euron was still his elder, no matter how much bad blood might be between them. No man is as
accursed as the kinslayer.
But when the Damphairs summons came, the call to kingsmoot, then all was changed. Aeron
speaks with the Drowned Gods voice, Victarion reminded himself, and if the Drowned God
wills that I should sit the Seastone Chair... The next day he gave command of Moat Cailin to
Ralf Kenning and set off overland for the Fever River where the Iron Fleet lay amongst the reeds
and willows. Rough seas and fickle winds had delayed him, but only one ship had been lost, and
he was home.
Grief and Iron Vengeance were close behind as Iron Victory passed the headland. Behind came
Hardhand, Iron Wind, Grey Ghost, Lord Quellon, Lord Vickon, Lord Dagon, and the rest, nine-
tenths of the Iron Fleet, sailing on the evening tide in a ragged column that extended back long
leagues. The sight of their sails filled Victarion Greyjoy with content. No man had ever loved his
wives half as well as the Lord Captain loved his ships.

Along the sacred strand of Old Wyk, longships lined the shore as far as the eye could see, their
masts thrust up like spears. In the deeper waters rode prizes: cogs, carracks, and dromonds won
in raid or war, too big to run ashore. From prow and stern and mast flew familiar banners.
Nute the Barber squinted toward the strand. Is that Lord Harlaws Sea Song? The Barber was
a thickset man with bandy legs and long arms, but his eyes were not so keen as they had been
when he was young. In those days he could throw an axe so well that men said he could shave
you with it.
Sea Song, aye. Rodrik the Reader had left his books, it would seem. And theres old
Drumms Thunderer, with Blacktydes Nightflyer beside her. Victarions eyes were as sharp as
they had ever been. Even with their sails furled and their banners hanging limp, he knew them, as
befit the Lord Captain of the Iron Fleet. Silverfin too. Some kin of Sawane Botley. The Crows
Eye had drowned Lord Botley, Victarion had heard, and his heir had died at Moat Cailin, but
there had been brothers, and other sons as well. How many? Four? No, five, and none with any
cause to love the Crows Eye.
And then he saw her: a single-masted galley, lean and low, with a dark red hull. Her sails, now
furled, were black as a starless sky. Even at anchor Silence looked both cruel and fast. On her
prow was a black iron maiden with one arm outstretched. Her waist was slender, her breasts high
and proud, her legs long and shapely. A windblown mane of black iron hair streamed from her
head, and her eyes were mother-of-pearl, but she had no mouth.
Victarions hands closed into fists. He had beaten four men to death with those hands, and one
wife as well. Though his hair was flecked with hoarfrost, he was as strong as he had ever been,
with a bulls broad chest and a boys flat belly. The kinslayer is accursed in the eyes of gods and
men, Balon had reminded him on the day he sent the Crows Eye off to sea.
He is here, Victarion told the Barber. Drop sail. We proceed on oars alone. Command Grief
and Iron Vengeance to stand between Silence and the sea. The rest of the fleet to seal the bay.
None is to leave save at my command, neither man nor crow.
The men upon the shore had spied their sails. Shouts echoed across the bay as friends and kin
called out greetings. But not from Silence. On her decks a motley crew of mutes and mongrels
spoke no word as the Iron Victory drew nigh. Men black as tar stared out at him, and others
squat and hairy as the apes of Sothoros. Monsters, Victarion thought.
They dropped anchor twenty yards from Silence. Lower a boat. I would go ashore. He
buckled on his swordbelt as the rowers took their places; his longsword rested on one hip, a dirk
upon the other. Nute the Barber fastened the Lord Captains cloak about his shoulders. It was
made of nine layers of cloth-of-gold, sewn in the shape of the kraken of Greyjoy, arms dangling
to his boots. Beneath he wore heavy grey chainmail over boiled black leather. In Moat Cailin he
had taken to wearing mail day and night. Sore shoulders and an aching back were easier to bear
than bloody bowels. The poisoned arrows of the bog devils need only scratch a man, and a few
hours later he would be squirting and screaming as his life ran down his legs in gouts of red and
brown. Whoever wins the Seastone Chair, I shall deal with the bog devils.

Victarion donned a tall black warhelm, wrought in the shape of an iron kraken, its arms coiled
down around his cheeks to meet beneath his jaw. By then the boat was ready. I put the chests
into your charge, he told Nute as he climbed over the side. See that they are strongly guarded.
Much depended on the chests.
As you command, Your Grace.
Victarion returned a sour scowl. I am no king as yet. He clambered down into the boat.
Aeron Damphair was waiting for him in the surf with his waterskin slung beneath one arm. The
priest was gaunt and tall, though shorter than Victarion. His nose rose like a sharks fin from a
bony face, and his eyes were iron. His beard reached to his waist, and tangled ropes of hair
slapped at the back of his legs when the wind blew. Brother, he said as the waves broke white
and cold around their ankles, what is dead can never die.
But rises again, harder and stronger. Victarion lifted off his helm and knelt. The bay filled his
boots and soaked his breeches as Aeron poured a stream of salt water down upon his brow. And
so they prayed.
Where is our brother Crows Eye? the Lord Captain demanded of Aeron Damphair when the
prayers were done.
His is the great tent of cloth-of-gold, there where the din is loudest. He surrounds himself with
godless men and monsters, worse than before. In him our fathers blood went bad.
Our mothers blood as well. Victarion would not speak of kinslaying, here in this godly place
beneath the bones of Nagga and the Grey Kings Hall, but many a night he dreamed of driving a
mailed fist into Eurons smiling face, until the flesh split and his bad blood ran red and free. I
must not. I pledged my word to Balon. All have come? he asked his priestly brother.
All who matter. The captains and the kings. On the Iron Islands they were one and the same,
for every captain was a king on his own deck, and every king must be a captain. Do you mean
to claim our fathers crown?
Victarion imagined himself seated on the Seastone Chair. If the Drowned God wills it.
The waves will speak, said Aeron Damphair as he turned away. Listen to the waves,
brother.
Aye. He wondered how his name would sound whispered by waves and shouted by the
captains and the kings. If the cup should pass to me, I will not set it by.
A crowd had gathered round to wish him well and seek his favor. Victarion saw men from
every isle: Blacktydes, Tawneys, Orkwoods, Stonetrees, Wynches, and many more. The
Goodbrothers of Old Wyk, the Goodbrothers of Great Wyk, and the Goodbrothers of Orkmont
all had come. The Codds were there, though every decent man despised them. Humble
Shepherds, Weavers, and Netleys rubbed shoulders with men from Houses ancient and proud;
even humble Humbles, the blood of thralls and salt wives. A Volmark clapped Victarion on the
back; two Sparrs pressed a wineskin into his hands. He drank deep, wiped his mouth, and let
them bear him off to their cookfires, to listen to their talk of war and crowns and plunder, and the
glory and the freedom of his reign.

That night the men of the Iron Fleet raised a huge sailcloth tent above the tideline, so Victarion
might feast half a hundred famous captains on roast kid, salted cod, and lobster. Aeron came as
well. He ate fish and drank water, whilst the captains quaffed enough ale to float the Iron Fleet.
Many promised him their voices: Fralegg the Strong, clever Alvyn Sharp, humpbacked Hotho
Harlaw. Hotho offered him a daughter for his queen. I have no luck with wives, Victarion told
him. His first wife died in childbed, giving him a stillborn daughter. His second had been
stricken by a pox. And his third...
A king must have an heir, Hotho insisted. The Crows Eye brings three sons to show before
the kingsmoot.
Bastards and mongrels. How old is this daughter?
Twelve, said Hotho. Fair and fertile, newly flowered, with hair the color of honey. Her
breasts are small as yet, but she has good hips. She takes after her mother, more than me.
Victarion knew that to mean the girl did not have a hump. Yet when he tried to picture her, he
only saw the wife hed killed. He had sobbed each time he struck her, and afterward carried her
down to the rocks to give her to the crabs. I will gladly look at the girl once I am crowned, he
said. That was as much as Hotho dared hope for, and he shambled off, content.
Baelor Blacktyde was more difficult to please. He sat by Victarions elbow in his lambswool
tunic of black-and-green vairy, smooth-faced and comely. His cloak was sable, and pinned with
a silver seven-pointed star. He had been eight years a hostage in Oldtown, and had returned a
worshiper of the seven green land gods. Balon was mad, Aeron is madder, and Euron is
maddest of them all, Lord Baelor said. What of you, Lord Captain? If I shout your name, will
you make an end of this mad war?
Victarion frowned. Would you have me bend the knee?
If need be. We cannot stand alone against all Westeros. King Robert proved that, to our grief.
Balon would pay the iron price for freedom, he said, but our women bought Balons crowns with
empty beds. My mother was one such. The Old Way is dead.
What is dead can never die, but rises harder and stronger. In a hundred years men will sing of
Balon the Bold.
Balon the Widowmaker, call him. I will gladly trade his freedom for a father. Have you one to
give me? When Victarion did not answer, Blacktyde snorted and moved off.
The tent grew hot and smoky. Two of Gorold Goodbrothers sons knocked a table over
fighting; Will Humble lost a wager and had to eat his boot; Little Lenwood Tawney fiddled
whilst Romny Weaver sang The Bloody Cup and Steel Rain and other old reaving songs.
Qarl the Maid and Eldred Codd danced the finger dance. A roar of laughter went up when one of
Eldreds fingers landed in Ralf the Limpers wine cup.
A woman was amongst those laughing. Victarion rose and saw her by the tent flap, whispering
something in the ear of Qarl the Maid that made him laugh as well. He had hoped she would not
be fool enough to come here, yet the sight of her made him smile all the same. Asha, he called
in a commanding voice. Niece.

She made her way to his side, lean and lithe in high boots of salt-stained leather, green woolen
breeches, and brown quilted tunic, a sleeveless leather jerkin half-unlaced. Nuncle. Asha
Greyjoy was tall for a woman, yet she had to stand on her toes to kiss his cheek. I am pleased to
see you at my queensmoot.
Queensmoot? Victarion laughed. Are you drunk, niece? Sit. I did not spy your Black Wind
on the strand.
I beached her beneath Norne Goodbrothers castle and rode across the island. She sat upon a
stool and helped herself unasked to Nute the Barbers wine. Nute raised no objection; he had
passed out drunk some time ago. Who holds the Moat?
Ralf Kenning. With the Young Wolf dead, only the bog devils remain to plague us.
The Starks were not the only northmen. The Iron Throne has named the Lord of the Dreadfort
as Warden of the North.
Would you lesson me in warfare? I was fighting battles when you were sucking mothers
milk.
And losing battles too. Asha took a drink of wine.
Victarion did not like to be reminded of Fair Isle. Every man should lose a battle in his youth,
so he does not lose a war when he is old. You have not come to make a claim, I hope.
She teased him with a smile. And if I have?
There are men who remember when you were a little girl, swimming naked in the sea and
playing with your doll.
I played with axes too.
You did, he had to grant, but a woman wants a husband, not a crown. When I am king Ill
give you one.
My nuncle is so good to me. Shall I find a pretty wife for you, when I am queen?
I have no luck with wives. How long have you been here?
Long enough to see that Uncle Damphair has woken more than he intended. The Drumm
means to make a claim, and Tarle the Thrice-Drowned was heard to say that Maron Volmark is
the true heir of the black line.
The king must be a kraken.
The Crows Eye is a kraken. The elder brother comes before the younger. Asha leaned close.
But I am the child of King Balons body, so I come before you both. Hear me, nuncle...
But then a sudden silence fell. The singing died, Little Lenwood Tawney lowered his fiddle,
men turned their heads. Even the clatter of plates and knives was hushed.
A dozen newcomers had entered the feast tent. Victarion saw Pinchface Jon Myre, Torwold
Browntooth, Left-Hand Lucas Codd. Germund Botley crossed his arms against the gilded
breastplate he had taken off a Lannister captain during Balons first rebellion. Orkwood of
Orkmont stood beside him. Behind them were Stonehand, Quellon Humble, and the Red
Oarsman with his fiery hair in braids. Ralf the Shepherd too, and Ralf of Lordsport, and Qarl the
Thrall.
And the Crows Eye, Euron Greyjoy.

He looks unchanged, Victarion thought. He looks the same as he did the day he laughed at me
and left. Euron was the most comely of Lord Quellons sons, and three years of exile had not
changed that. His hair was still black as a midnight sea, with never a whitecap to be seen, and his
face was still smooth and pale beneath his neat dark beard. A black leather patch covered
Eurons left eye, but his right was blue as a summer sky.
His smiling eye, thought Victarion. Crows Eye, he said.
King Crows Eye, brother. Euron smiled. His lips looked very dark in the lamplight, bruised
and blue.
We shall have no king but from the kingsmoot. The Damphair stood. No godless man
may sit the Seastone Chair, aye. Euron glanced about the tent. As it happens as I have oft
sat upon the Seastone Chair of late. It raises no objections. His smiling eye was glittering. Who
knows more of gods than I? Horse gods and fire gods, gods made of gold with gemstone eyes,
gods carved of cedar wood, gods chiseled into mountains, gods of empty air... I know them all. I
have seen their peoples garland them with flowers, and shed the blood of goats and bulls and
children in their names. And I have heard the prayers, in half a hundred tongues. Cure my
withered leg, make the maiden love me, grant me a healthy son. Save me, succor me, make me
wealthy... protect me! Protect me from mine enemies, protect me from the darkness, protect me
from the crabs inside my belly, from the horselords, from the slavers, from the sellswords at my
door. Protect me from the Silence. He laughed. Godless? Why, Aeron, I am the godliest man
ever to raise sail! You serve one god, Damphair, but I have served ten thousand. From Ib to
Asshai, when men see my sails, they pray.
The priest raised a bony finger. They pray to trees and golden idols and goat-headed
abominations. False gods...
Just so, said Euron, and for that sin I kill them all. I spill their blood upon the sea and sow
their screaming women with my seed. Their little gods cannot stop me, so plainly they are false
gods. I am more devout than even you, Aeron. Perhaps it should be you who kneels to me for
blessing.
The Red Oarsman laughed loudly at that, and the others took their lead from him.
Fools, said the priest, fools and thralls and blind men, that is what you are. Do you not see
what stands before you?
A king, said Quellon Humble.
The Damphair spat, and strode out into the night.
When he was gone, the Crows Eye turned his smiling eye upon Victarion. Lord Captain, have
you no greeting for a brother long away? Nor you, Asha? How fares your lady mother?
Poorly, Asha said. Some man made her a widow.
Euron shrugged. I had heard the Storm God swept Balon to his death. Who is this man who
slew him? Tell me his name, niece, so I might revenge myself on him.
Asha got to her feet. You know his name as well as I. Three years you were gone from us, and
yet Silence returns within a day of my lord fathers death.
Do you accuse me? Euron asked mildly.

Should I? The sharpness in Ashas voice made Victarion frown. It was dangerous to speak so
to the Crows Eye, even when his smiling eye was shining with amusement.
Do I command the winds? the Crows Eye asked his pets.
No, Your Grace, said Orkwood of Orkmont.
No man commands the winds, said Germund Botley.
Would that you did, the Red Oarsman said. You would sail wherever you liked and never be
becalmed.
There you have it, from the mouths of three brave men, Euron said. The Silence was at sea
when Balon died. If you doubt an uncles word, I give you leave to ask my crew.
A crew of mutes? Aye, that would serve me well.
A husband would serve you well. Euron turned to his followers again. Torwold, I
misremember, do you have a wife?
Only the one. Torwold Browntooth grinned, and showed how he had won his name.
I am unwed, announced Left-Hand Lucas Codd.
And for good reason, Asha said. All women do despise the Codds as well. Dont look at me
so mournful, Lucas. You still have your famous hand. She made a pumping motion with her
fist.
Codd cursed, till the Crows Eye put a hand upon his chest. Was that courteous, Asha? You
have wounded Lucas to the quick.
Easier than wounding him in the prick. I throw an axe as well as any man, but when the target
is so small...
This girl forgets herself, snarled Pinchface Jon Myre. Balon let her believe she was a man.
Your father made the same mistake with you, said Asha.
Give her to me, Euron, suggested the Red Oarsman. Ill spank her till her arse is as red as
my hair.
Come try, said Asha, and hereafter we can call you the Red Eunuch. A throwing axe was in
her hand. She tossed it in the air and caught it deftly. Here is my husband, Nuncle. Any man
who wants me should take it up with him.
Victarion slammed his fist upon the table. Ill have no blood shed here. Euron, take your...
pets... and go.
I had looked for a warmer welcome from you, brother. I am your elder... and soon, your
rightful king.
Victarions face darkened. When the kingsmoot speaks, we shall see who wears the driftwood
crown.
On that we can agree. Euron lifted two fingers to the patch that covered his left eye, and took
his leave. The others followed at his heels like mongrel dogs. Silence lingered behind them, till
Little Lenwood Tawney took up his fiddle. The wine and ale began to flow again, but several
guests had lost their thirst. Eldred Codd slipped out, cradling his bloody hand. Then Will
Humble, Hotho Harlaw, a goodly lot of Goodbrothers.
Nuncle. Asha put a hand upon his shoulder. Walk with me, if you would.

Outside the tent the wind was rising. Clouds raced across the moons pale face. They looked a
bit like galleys, stroking hard to ram. The stars were few and faint. All along the strand the
longships rested, tall masts rising like a forest from the surf. Victarion could hear their hulls
creaking as they settled on the sand. He heard the keening of their lines, the sound of banners
flapping. Beyond, in the deeper waters of the bay, larger ships bobbed at anchor, grim shadows
wreathed in mist.
They walked along the strand together just above the surf, far from the camps and the cookfires.
Tell me true, nuncle, Asha said, why did Euron go away so suddenly?
The Crows Eye oft went reaving.
Never for so long.
He took the Silence east. A lengthy voyage.
I asked why he went, not where. When he did not answer, Asha said, I was away when
Silence sailed. I had taken Black Wind around the Arbor to the Stepstones, to steal a few trinkets
from the Lyseni pirates. When I came home, Euron was gone and your new wife was dead.
She was only a salt wife. He had not touched another woman since he gave her to the crabs. I
will need to take a wife when I am king. A true wife, to be my queen and bear me sons. A king
must have an heir.
My father refused to speak of her, said Asha.
It does no good to speak of things no man can change. He was weary of the subject. I saw
the Readers longship.
It took all my charm to winkle him out of his Book Tower.
She has the Harlaws, then. Victarions frown grew deeper. You cannot hope to rule. You are a
woman.
Is that why I always lose the pissing contests? Asha laughed. Nuncle, it grieves me to say so,
but you may be right. For four days and four nights, I have been drinking with the captains and
the kings, listening to what they say... and what they will not say. Mine own are with me, and
many Harlaws. I have Tris Botley too, and some few others. Not enough. She kicked a rock,
and sent it splashing into the water between two longships. I am of a mind to shout my nuncles
name.
Which uncle? he demanded. You have three.
Four. Nuncle, hear me. I will place the driftwood crown upon your brow myself... if you will
agree to share the rule.
Share the rule? How could that be? The woman was not making sense. Does she want to be
my queen? Victarion found himself looking at Asha in a way he had never looked at her before.
He could feel his manhood beginning to stiffen. She is Balons daughter, he reminded himself.
He remembered her as a little girl, throwing axes at a door. He crossed his arms against his chest.
The Seastone Chair seats but one.
Then let my nuncle sit, Asha said. I will stand behind you, to guard your back and whisper
in your ear. No king can rule alone. Even when the dragons sat the Iron Throne, they had men to
help them. The Kings Hands. Let me be your Hand, Nuncle.

No King of the Isles had ever needed a Hand, much less one who was a woman. The captains
and the kings would mock me in their cups. Why would you wish to be my Hand?
To end this war before this war ends us. We have won all that we are like to win... and stand to
lose all just as quick, unless we make a peace. I have shown Lady Glover every courtesy, and she
swears her lord will treat with me. If we hand back Deepwood Motte, Torrhens Square, and
Moat Cailin, she says, the northmen will cede us Sea Dragon Point and all the Stony Shore.
Those lands are thinly peopled, yet ten times larger than all the isles put together. An exchange
of hostages will seal the pact, and each side will agree to make common cause with the other
should the Iron Throne
Victarion chuckled. This Lady Glover plays you for a fool, niece. Sea Dragon Point and the
Stony Shore are ours. Why hand back anything? Winterfell is burnt and broken, and the Young
Wolf rots headless in the earth. We will have all the north, as your lord father dreamed.
When longships learn to row through trees, perhaps. A fisherman may hook a grey leviathan,
but it will drag him down to death unless he cuts it loose. The north is too large for us to hold,
and too full of northmen.
Go back to your dolls, niece. Leave the winning of wars to warriors. Victarion showed her his
fists. I have two hands. No man needs three.
I know a man who needs House Harlaw, though.
Hotho Humpback has offered me his daughter for my queen. If I take her, I will have the
Harlaws.
That took the girl aback. Lord Rodrik rules House Harlaw.
Rodrik has no daughters, only books. Hotho will be his heir, and I will be the king. Once he
had said the words aloud, they sounded true. The Crows Eye has been too long away.
Some men look larger at a distance, Asha warned. Walk amongst the cookfires if you dare,
and listen. They are not telling tales of your strength, nor of my famous beauty. They talk only of
the Crows Eye; the far places he has seen, the women he has raped and the men hes killed, the
cities he has sacked, the way he burnt Lord Tywins fleet at Lannisport...
I burnt the lions fleet, Victarion insisted. With mine own hands I flung the first torch onto
his flagship.
The Crows Eye hatched the scheme. Asha put her hand upon his arm. And killed your wife
as well... did he not?
Balon had commanded them not to speak of it, but Balon was dead. He put a baby in her belly
and made me do the killing. I would have killed him too, but Balon would have no kinslaying in
his hall. He sent Euron into exile, never to return...
... so long as Balon lived?
Victarion looked at his fists. She gave me horns. I had no choice. Had it been known, men
would have laughed at me, as the Crows Eye laughed when I confronted him. She came to me
wet and willing, he had boasted. It seems Victarion is big everywhere but where it matters.
But he could not tell her that.

I am sorry for you, said Asha, and sorrier for her... but you leave me small choice but to
claim the Seastone Chair myself.
You cannot. Your breath is yours to waste, woman.
It is, she said, and left him.

THE DROWNED MAN
Only when his arms and legs were numb from the cold did Aeron Greyjoy struggle back
to shore and don his robes again.
He had run before the Crows Eye as if he were still the weak thing he had been, but when the
waves broke over his head they reminded once more that that man was dead. I was reborn from
the sea, a harder man and stronger. No mortal man could frighten him, no more than the darkness
could, nor the bones of his soul, the grey and grisly bones of his soul. The sound of a door
opening, the scream of a rusted iron hinge.
The priests robes crackled as he pulled them down, still stiff with salt from their last washing a
fortnight past. The wool clung to his wet chest, drinking the brine that ran down from his hair.
He filled his waterskin and slung it over his shoulder.
As he strode across the strand, a drowned man returning from a call of nature stumbled into him
in the darkness. Damphair, he murmured. Aeron laid a hand upon his head, blessed him, and
moved on. The ground rose beneath his feet, gently at first, then more steeply. When he felt
scrub grass between his toes, he knew that he had left the strand behind. Slowly he climbed,
listening to the waves. The sea is never weary. I must be as tireless.
On the crown of the hill four-and-forty monstrous stone ribs rose from the earth like the trunks
of great pale trees. The sight made Aerons heart beat faster. Nagga had been the first sea dragon,
the mightiest ever to rise from the waves. She fed on krakens and leviathans and drowned whole
islands in her wrath, yet the Grey King had slain her and the Drowned God had changed her
bones to stone so that men might never cease to wonder at the courage of the first of kings.
Naggas ribs became the beams and pillars of his longhall, just as her jaws became his throne.
For a thousand years and seven he reigned here, Aeron recalled. Here he took his mermaid wife
and planned his wars against the Storm God. From here he ruled both stone and salt, wearing
robes of woven seaweed and a tall pale crown made from Naggas teeth.
But that was in the dawn of days, when mighty men still dwelt on earth and sea. The hall had
been warmed by Naggas living fire, which the Grey King had made his thrall. On its walls hung
tapestries woven from silver seaweed most pleasing to the eyes. The Grey Kings warriors had
feasted on the bounty of the sea at a table in the shape of a great starfish, whilst seated upon
thrones carved from mother-of-pearl. Gone, all the glory gone. Men were smaller now. Their
lives had grown short. The Storm God drowned Naggas fire after the Grey Kings death, the
chairs and tapestries had been stolen, the roof and walls had rotted away. Even the Grey Kings
great throne of fangs had been swallowed by the sea. Only Naggas bones endured to remind the
ironborn of all the wonder that had been.
It is enough, thought Aeron Greyjoy.
Nine wide steps had been hewn from the stony hilltop. Behind rose the howling hills of Old
Wyk, with mountains in the distance black and cruel. Aeron paused where the doors once stood,
pulled the cork from his waterskin, took a swallow of salt water, and turned to face the sea. We
were born from the sea, and to the sea we must return. Even here he could hear the ceaseless

rumble of the waves and feel the power of the god who lurked below the waters. Aeron went to
his knees. You have sent your people to me, he prayed. They have left their halls and hovels,
their castles and their keeps, and come here to Naggas bones, from every fishing village and
every hidden vale. Now grant to them the wisdom to know the true king when he stands before
them, and the strength to shun the false. All night he prayed, for when the god was in him Aeron
Greyjoy had no need of sleep, no more than the waves did, nor the fishes of the sea.
Dark clouds ran before the wind as the first light stole into the world. The black sky went grey
as slate; the black sea turned grey-green; the black mountains of Great Wyk across the bay put
on the blue-green hues of soldier pines. As color stole back into the world, a hundred banners
lifted and began to flap. Aeron beheld the silver fish of Botley, the bloody moon of Wynch, the
dark green trees of Orkwood. He saw warhorns and leviathans and scythes, and everywhere the
krakens great and golden. Beneath them, thralls and salt wives begin to move about, stirring
coals into new life and gutting fish for the captains and the kings to break their fasts. The
dawnlight touched the stony strand, and he watched men wake from sleep, throwing aside their
sealskin blankets as they called for their first horn of ale. Drink deep, he thought, for we have
gods work to do today.
The sea was stirring too. The waves grew larger as the wind rose, sending plumes of spray to
crash against the longships. The Drowned God wakes, thought Aeron. He could hear his voice
welling from the depths of the sea. I shall be with you here this day, my strong and faithful
servant, the voice said. No godless man will sit my Seastone Chair.
It was there beneath the arch of Naggas ribs that his drowned men found him, standing tall and
stern with his long black hair blowing in the wind. Is it time? Rus asked. Aeron gave a nod,
and said, It is. Go forth and sound the summons.
The drowned men took up their driftwood cudgels and began to beat them one against the other
as they walked back down the hill. Others joined them, and the clangor spread along the strand.
Such a fearful clacking and a clattering it made, as if a hundred trees were pummeling one
another with their limbs. Kettledrums began to beat as well, boom-boom-boom-boom-boom,
boom-boom-boom-boom-boom. A warhorn bellowed, then another.
AAAAAAooooooooooooooo.
Men left their fires to make their way toward the bones of the Grey Kings Hall; oarsmen,
steersmen, sailmakers, shipwrights, the warriors with their axes and the fishermen with their
nets. Some had thralls to serve them; some had salt wives. Others, who had sailed too often to
the green lands, were attended by maesters and singers and knights. The common men crowded
together in a crescent around the base of the knoll, with the thralls, children, and women toward
the rear. The captains and the kings made their way up the slopes. Aeron Damphair saw cheerful
Sigfry Stonetree, Andrik the Unsmiling, the knight Ser Harras Harlaw. Lord Baelor Blacktyde in
his sable cloak stood beside The Stonehouse in ragged sealskin. Victarion loomed above all of
them save Andrik. His brother wore no helm, but elsewise he was all in armor, his kraken cloak
hanging golden from his shoulders. He shall be our king. What man could look on him and doubt
it?

When the Damphair raised his bony hands the kettledrums and the warhorns fell silent, the
drowned men lowered their cudgels, and all the voices stilled. Only the sound of the waves
pounding remained, a roar no man could still. We were born from the sea, and to the sea we all
return, Aeron began, softly at first, so men would strain to hear. The Storm God in his wrath
plucked Balon from his castle and cast him down, yet now he feasts beneath the waves in the
Drowned Gods watery halls. He lifted his eyes to the sky. Balon is dead! The iron king is
dead!
The king is dead! his drowned men shouted.
Yet what is dead may never die, but rises again, harder and stronger! he reminded them.
Balon has fallen, Balon my brother, who honored the Old Way and paid the iron price. Balon
the Brave, Balon the Blessed, Balon Twice-Crowned, who won us back our freedoms and our
god. Balon is dead... but an iron king shall rise again, to sit upon the Seastone Chair and rule the
isles.
A king shall rise! they answered. He shall rise!
He shall. He must. Aerons voice thundered like the waves. But who? Who shall sit in
Balons place? Who shall rule these holy isles? Is he here among us now? The priest spread his
hands wide. Who shall be king over us?
A seagull screamed back at him. The crowd began to stir, like men waking from a dream. Each
man looked at his neighbors, to see which of them might presume to claim a crown. The Crows
Eye was never patient, Aeron Damphair told himself. Mayhaps he will speak first. If so, it would
be his undoing. The captains and the kings had come a long way to this feast and would not
choose the first dish set before them. They will want to taste and sample, a bite of him, a nibble
of the other, until they find the one that suits them best.
Euron must have known that as well. He stood with his arms crossed amongst his mutes and
monsters. Only the wind and the waves answered Aerons call.
The ironborn must have a king, the priest insisted, after a long silence. I ask again. Who
shall be king over us?
I will, came the answer from below.
At once a ragged cry of Gylbert! Gylbert King! went up. The captains gave way to let the
claimant and his champions ascend the hill to stand at Aerons side beneath the ribs of Nagga.
This would-be king was a tall spare lord with a melancholy visage, his lantern jaw shaved
clean. His three champions took up their position two steps below him, bearing his sword and
shield and banner. They shared a certain look with the tall lord, and Aeron took them for his
sons. One unfurled his banner, a great black longship against a setting sun. I am Gylbert
Farwynd, Lord of the Lonely Light, the lord told the kingsmoot.
Aeron knew some Farwynds, a queer folk who held lands on the westernmost shores of Great
Wyk and the scattered isles beyond, rocks so small that most could support but a single
household. Of those, the Lonely Light was the most distant, eight days sail to the northwest
amongst rookeries of seals and sea lions and the boundless grey oceans. The Farwynds there

were even queerer than the rest. Some said they were skinchangers, unholy creatures who could
take on the forms of sea lions, walruses, even spotted whales, the wolves of the wild sea.
Lord Gylbert began to speak. He told of a wondrous land beyond the Sunset Sea, a land without
winter or want, where death had no dominion. Make me your king, and I shall lead you there,
he cried. We will build ten thousand ships as Nymeria once did and take sail with all our people
to the land beyond the sunset. There every man shall be a king and every wife a queen.
His eyes, Aeron saw, were now grey, now blue, as changeable as the seas. Mad eyes, he
thought, fools eyes. The vision he spoke of was doubtless a snare set by the Storm God to lure
the ironborn to destruction. The offerings that his men spilled out before the kingsmoot included
sealskins and walrus tusks, arm rings made of whalebone, warhorns banded in bronze. The
captains looked and turned away, leaving lesser men to help themselves to the gifts. When the
fool was done talking and his champions began to shout his name, only the Farwynds took up the
cry, and not even all of them. Soon enough the cries of Gylbert! Gylbert King! faded away to
silence. The gull screamed loudly above them, and landed atop one of Naggas ribs as the Lord
of the Lonely Light made his way back down the hill.
Aeron Damphair stepped forward once more. I ask again. Who shall be king over us?
Me! a deep voice boomed, and once more the crowd parted.
The speaker was borne up the hill in a carved driftwood chair carried on the shoulders of his
grandsons. A great ruin of a man, twenty stones heavy and ninety years old, he was cloaked in a
white bearskin. His own hair was snow white as well, and his huge beard covered him like a
blanket from cheeks to thighs, so it was hard to tell where the beard ended and the pelt began.
Though his grandsons were great strapping men, they struggled with his weight on the steep
stone steps. Before the Grey Kings Hall they set him down, and three remained below him as
his champions.
Sixty years ago, this one might well have won the favor of the moot, Aeron thought, but his
hour is long past.
Aye, me! the man roared from where he sat, in a voice as huge as he was. Why not? Who
better? I am Erik Ironmaker, for them whos blind. Erik the Just. Erik Anvil-Breaker. Show them
my hammer, Thormor. One of his champions lifted it up for all to see; a monstrous thing it was,
its haft wrapped in old leather, its head a brick of steel as large as a loaf of bread. I cant count
how many hands Ive smashed to pulp with that hammer, Erik said, but might be some thief
could tell you. I cant say how many heads Ive crushed against my anvil neither, but theres
some widows could. I could tell you all the deeds Ive done in battle, but Im eight-and-eighty
and wont live long enough to finish. If old is wise, no one is wiser than me. If big is strong, no
ones stronger. You want a king with heirs? Ive moren I can count. King Erik, aye, I like the
sound o that. Come, say it with me. ERIK! ERIK ANVIL-BREAKER! ERIK KING!
As his grandsons took up the cry, their own sons came forward with chests upon their
shoulders. When they upended them at the base of the stone steps, a torrent of silver, bronze, and
steel spilled forth; arm rings, collars, daggers, dirks, and throwing axes. A few captains snatched
up the choicest items and added their voices to the swelling chant. But no sooner had the cry

begun to build than a womans voice cut through it. Erik! Men moved aside to let her through.
With one foot on the lowest step, she said, Erik, stand up.
A hush fell. The wind blew, waves broke against the shore, men murmured in each others ears.
Erik Ironmaker stared down at Asha Greyjoy. Girl. Thrice-damned girl. What did you say?
Stand up, Erik, she called. Stand up and Ill shout your name with all the rest. Stand up and
Ill be the first to follow you. You want a crown, aye. Stand up and take it.
Elsewhere in the press, the Crows Eye laughed. Erik glared at him. The big mans hands
closed tight around the arms of his driftwood throne. His face went red, then purple. His arms
trembled with effort. Aeron could see a thick blue vein pulsing in his neck as he struggled to rise.
For a moment it seemed as though he might do it, but the breath went out of him all at once, and
he groaned and sank back onto his cushion. Euron laughed all the louder. The big man hung his
head and grew old, all in the blink of an eye. His grandsons carried him back down the hill.
Who shall rule the ironborn? Aeron Damphair called again. Who shall be king over us?
Men looked at one another. Some looked at Euron, some at Victarion, a few at Asha. Waves
broke green and white against the longships. The gull cried once more, a raucous scream,
forlorn. Make your claim, Victarion, the Merlyn called. Let us have done with this mummers
farce.
When I am ready, Victarion shouted back.
Aeron was pleased. It is better if he waits.
The Drumm came next, another old man, though not so old as Erik. He climbed the hill on his
own two legs, and on his hip rode Red Rain, his famous sword, forged of Valyrian steel in the
days before the Doom. His champions were men of note: his sons Denys and Donnel, both stout
fighters, and between them Andrik the Unsmiling, a giant of a man with arms as thick as trees. It
spoke well of the Drumm that such a man would stand for him.
Where is it written that our king must be a kraken? Drumm began. What right has Pyke to
rule us? Great Wyk is the largest isle, Harlaw the richest, Old Wyk the most holy. When the
black line was consumed by dragonfire, the ironborn gave the primacy to Vickon Greyjoy, aye...
but as lord, not king.
It was a good beginning. Aeron heard shouts of approval, but they dwindled as the old man
began to tell of the glory of the Drumms. He spoke of Dale the Dread, Roryn the Reaver, the
hundred sons of Gormond Drumm the Oldfather. He drew Red Rain and told them how Hilmar
Drumm the Cunning had taken the blade from an armored knight with wits and a wooden cudgel.
He spoke of ships long lost and battles eight hundred years forgotten, and the crowd grew
restive. He spoke and spoke, and then he spoke still more.
And when Drumms chests were thrown open, the captains saw the niggards gifts hed brought
them. No throne was ever bought with bronze, the Damphair thought. The truth of that was plain
to hear, as the cries of Drumm! Drumm! Dunstan King! died away.
Aeron could feel a tightness in his belly, and it seemed to him that the waves were pounding
louder than before. It is time, he thought. It is time for Victarion to make his claim. Who shall
be king over us? the priest cried once more, but this time his fierce black eyes found his brother

in the crowd. Nine sons were born from the loins of Quellon Greyjoy. One was mightier than all
the rest, and knew no fear.
Victarion met his eyes, and nodded. The captains parted before him as he climbed the steps.
Brother, give me blessing, he said when he reached the top. He knelt and bowed his head.
Aeron uncorked his waterskin and poured a stream of seawater down upon his brow. What is
dead can never die, the priest said, and Victarion replied, but rises again, harder and stronger.
When Victarion rose, his champions arrayed themselves beneath him; Ralf the Limper, Red
Ralf Stonehouse, and Nute the Barber, noted warriors all. Stonehouse bore the Greyjoy banner;
the golden kraken on a field as black as the midnight sea. As soon as it unfurled, the captains and
the kings began to shout out the Lord Captains name. Victarion waited till they quieted, then
said, You all know me. If you want sweet words, look elsewhere. I have no singers tongue. I
have an axe, and I have these. He raised his huge mailed hands up to show them, and Nute the
Barber displayed his axe, a fearsome piece of steel. I was a loyal brother, Victarion went on.
When Balon was wed, it was me he sent to Harlaw to bring him back his bride. I led his
longships into many a battle, and never lost but one. The first time Balon took a crown, it was me
sailed into Lannisport to singe the lions tail. The second time, it was me he sent to skin the
Young Wolf should he come howling home. All youll get from me is more of what you got
from Balon. Thats all I have to say.
With that his champions began to chant: VICTARION! VICTARION! VICTARION KING!
Below, his men were spilling out his chests, a cascade of silver, gold, and gems, a wealth of
plunder. Captains scrambled to seize the richest pieces, shouting as they did so. VICTARION!
VICTARION! VICTARION KING! Aeron watched the Crows Eye. Will he speak now, or let
the kingsmoot run its course? Orkwood of Orkmont was whispering in Eurons ear.
But it was not Euron who put an end to the shouting, it was the woman. She put two fingers in
her mouth and whistled, a sharp shrill sound that cut through the tumult like a knife through
curds. Nuncle! Nuncle! Bending, she snatched up a twisted golden collar and bounded up the
steps. Nute seized her by the arm, and for half a heartbeat Aeron was hopeful that his brothers
champions would keep her silent, but Asha wrenched free of the Barbers hand and said
something to Red Ralf that made him step aside. As she pushed past, the cheering died away.
She was Balon Greyjoys daughter, and the crowd was curious to hear her speak.
It was good of you to bring such gifts to my queensmoot, Nuncle, she told Victarion, but
you need not have worn so much armor. I promise not to hurt you. Asha turned to face the
captains. Theres no one braver than my nuncle, no one stronger, no one fiercer in a fight. And
he counts to ten as quick as any man, I have seen him do it... though when he needs to go to
twenty he does take off his boots. That made them laugh. He has no sons, though. His wives
keep dying. The Crows Eye is his elder and has a better claim...
He does! the Red Oarsman shouted from below.
Ah, but my claim is better still. Asha set the collar on her head at a jaunty angle, so the gold
gleamed against her dark hair. Balons brother cannot come before Balons son!
Balons sons are dead, cried Ralf the Limper. All I see is Balons little daughter!

Daughter? Asha slipped a hand beneath her jerkin. Oho! Whats this? Shall I show you?
Some of you have not seen one since they weaned you. They laughed again. Teats on a king
are a terrible thing, is that the song? Ralf, you have me, I am a woman... though not an old
woman like you. Ralf the Limper... shouldnt that be Ralf the Limp? Asha drew a dirk from
between her breasts. Im a mother too, and heres my suckling babe! She held it up. And here,
my champions. They pushed past Victarions three to stand below her: Qarl the Maid, Tristifer
Botley, and the knight Ser Harras Harlaw, whose sword Nightfall was as storied as Dunstan
Drumms Red Rain. My nuncle said you know him. You know me too
I want to know you better! someone shouted.
Go home and know your wife, Asha shot back. Nuncle says hell give you more of what my
father gave you. Well, what was that? Gold and glory, some will say. Freedom, ever sweet. Aye,
its so, he gave us that... and widows too, as Lord Blacktyde will tell you. How many of you had
your homes put to the torch when Robert came? How many had daughters raped and despoiled?
Burnt towns and broken castles, my father gave you that. Defeat was what he gave you. Nuncle
here will give you more. Not me.
What will you give us? asked Lucas Codd. Knitting?
Aye, Lucas. Ill knit us all a kingdom. She tossed her dirk from hand to hand. We need to
take a lesson from the Young Wolf, who won every battle... and lost all.
A wolf is not a kraken, Victarion objected. What the kraken grasps it does not lose, be it
longship or leviathan.
And what have we grasped, Nuncle? The north? What is that, but leagues and leagues of
leagues and leagues, far from the sound of the sea? We have taken Moat Cailin, Deepwood
Motte, Torrhens Square, even Winterfell. What do we have to show for it? She beckoned, and
her Black Wind men pushed forward, chests of oak and iron on their shoulders. I give you the
wealth of the Stony Shore, Asha said as the first was upended. An avalanche of pebbles
clattered forth, cascading down the steps; pebbles grey and black and white, worn smooth by the
sea. I give you the riches of Deepwood, she said, as the second chest was opened. Pinecones
came pouring out, to roll and bounce down into the crowd. And last, the gold of Winterfell.
From the third chest came yellow turnips, round and hard and big as a mans head. They landed
amidst the pebbles and the pinecones. Asha stabbed one with her dirk. Harmund Sharp, she
shouted, your son Harrag died at Winterfell, for this. She pulled the turnip off her blade and
tossed it to him. You have other sons, I think. If youd trade their lives for turnips, shout my
nuncles name!
And if I shout your name? Harmund demanded. What then?
Peace, said Asha. Land. Victory. Ill give you Sea Dragon Point and the Stony Shore, black
earth and tall trees and stones enough for every younger son to build a hall. Well have the
northmen too... as friends, to stand with us against the Iron Throne. Your choice is simple.
Crown me, for peace and victory. Or crown my nuncle, for more war and more defeat. She
sheathed her dirk again. What will you have, ironmen?

VICTORY! shouted Rodrik the Reader, his hands cupped about his mouth. Victory, and
Asha!
ASHA! Lord Baelor Blacktyde echoed. ASHA QUEEN!
Ashas own crew took up the cry. ASHA! ASHA! ASHA QUEEN! They stamped their feet
and shook their fists and yelled, as the Damphair listened in disbelief. She would leave her
fathers work undone! Yet Tristifer Botley was shouting for her, with many Harlaws, some
Goodbrothers, red-faced Lord Merlyn, more men than the priest would ever have believed... for a
woman!
But others were holding their tongues, or muttering asides to their neighbors. No cravens
peace! Ralf the Limper roared. Red Ralf Stonehouse swirled the Greyjoy banner and bellowed,
Victarion! VICTARION! VICTARION! Men began to shove at one another. Someone flung a
pinecone at Ashas head. When she ducked, her makeshift crown fell off. For a moment it
seemed to the priest as if he stood atop a giant anthill, with a thousand ants in a boil at his feet.
Shouts of Asha! and Victarion! surged back and forth, and it seemed as though some savage
storm was about to engulf them all. The Storm God is amongst us, the priest thought, sowing
fury and discord.
Sharp as a swordthrust, the sound of a horn split the air.
Bright and baneful was its voice, a shivering hot scream that made a mans bones seem to
thrum within him. The cry lingered in the damp sea air: aaaaRREEEEeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeee.
All eyes turned toward the sound. It was one of Eurons mongrels winding the call, a monstrous
man with a shaved head. Rings of gold and jade and jet glistened on his arms, and on his broad
chest was tattooed some bird of prey, talons dripping blood.
aaaaRRREEEEeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeee.
The horn he blew was shiny black and twisted, and taller than a man as he held it with both
hands. It was bound about with bands of red gold and dark steel, incised with ancient Valyrian
glyphs that seemed to glow redly as the sound swelled.
aaaaaaaRRREEEEEEEEEEEEeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeee.
It was a terrible sound, a wail of pain and fury that seemed to burn the ears. Aeron Damphair
covered his, and prayed for the Drowned God to raise a mighty wave and smash the horn to
silence, yet still the shriek went on and on. It is the horn of hell, he wanted to scream, though no
man would have heard him. The cheeks of the tattooed man were so puffed out they looked
about to burst, and the muscles in his chest twitched in a way that it made it seem as if the bird
were about to rip free of his flesh and take wing. And now the glyphs were burning brightly,
every line and letter shimmering with white fire. On and on and on the sound went, echoing
amongst the howling hills behind them and across the waters of Naggas Cradle to ring against
the mountains of Great Wyk, on and on and on until it filled the whole wet world.
And when it seemed the sound would never end, it did.
The hornblowers breath failed at last. He staggered and almost fell. The priest saw Orkwood of
Orkmont catch him by one arm to hold him up, whilst Left-Hand Lucas Codd took the twisted
black horn from his hands. A thin wisp of smoke was rising from the horn, and the priest saw

blood and blisters upon the lips of the man whod sounded it. The bird on his chest was bleeding
too.
Euron Greyjoy climbed the hill slowly, with every eye upon him. Above the gull screamed and
screamed again. No godless man may sit the Seastone Chair, Aeron thought, but he knew that he
must let his brother speak. His lips moved silently in prayer.
Ashas champions stepped aside, and Victarions as well. The priest took a step backward and
put one hand upon the cold rough stone of Naggas ribs. The Crows Eye stopped atop the steps,
at the doors of the Grey Kings Hall, and turned his smiling eye upon the captains and the kings,
but Aeron could feel his other eye as well, the one that he kept hidden.
IRONMEN, said Euron Greyjoy, you have heard my horn. Now hear my words. I am
Balons brother, Quellons eldest living son. Lord Vickons blood is in my veins, and the blood
of the Old Kraken. Yet I have sailed farther than any of them. Only one living kraken has never
known defeat. Only one has never bent his knee. Only one has sailed to Asshai by the Shadow,
and seen wonders and terrors beyond imagining...
If you liked the Shadow so well, go back there, called out pink-cheeked Qarl the Maid, one of
Ashas champions.
The Crows Eye ignored him. My little brother would finish Balons war, and claim the north.
My sweet niece would give us peace and pinecones. His blue lips twisted in a smile. Asha
prefers victory to defeat. Victarion wants a kingdom, not a few scant yards of earth. From me,
you shall have both.
Crows Eye, you call me. Well, who has a keener eye than the crow? After every battle the
crows come in their hundreds and their thousands to feast upon the fallen. A crow can espy death
from afar. And I say that all of Westeros is dying. Those who follow me will feast until the end
of their days.
We are the ironborn, and once we were conquerors. Our writ ran everywhere the sound of the
waves was heard. My brother would have you be content with the cold and dismal north, my
niece with even less... but I shall give you Lannisport. Highgarden. The Arbor. Oldtown. The
riverlands and the Reach, the kingswood and the rainwood, Dorne and the marches, the
Mountains of the Moon and the Vale of Arryn, Tarth and the Stepstones. I say we take it all! I
say, we take Westeros. He glanced at the priest. All for the greater glory of our Drowned God,
to be sure.
For half a heartbeat even Aeron was swept away by the boldness of his words. The priest had
dreamed the same dream, when first hed seen the red comet in the sky. We shall sweep over the
green lands with fire and sword, root out the seven gods of the septons and the white trees of the
northmen...
Crows Eye, Asha called, did you leave your wits at Asshai? If we cannot hold the north
and we cannothow can we win the whole of the Seven Kingdoms?
Why, it has been done before. Did Balon teach his girl so little of the ways of war? Victarion,
our brothers daughter has never heard of Aegon the Conqueror, it would seem.

Aegon? Victarion crossed his arms against his armored chest. What has the Conqueror to do
with us?
I know as much of war as you do, Crows Eye, Asha said. Aegon Targaryen conquered
Westeros with dragons.
And so shall we, Euron Greyjoy promised. That horn you heard I found amongst the
smoking ruins that were Valyria, where no man has dared to walk but me. You heard its call, and
felt its power. It is a dragon horn, bound with bands of red gold and Valyrian steel graven with
enchantments. The dragonlords of old sounded such horns, before the Doom devoured them.
With this horn, ironmen, I can bind dragons to my will.
Asha laughed aloud. A horn to bind goats to your will would be of more use, Crows Eye.
There are no more dragons.
Again, girl, you are wrong. There are three, and I know where to find them. Surely that is
worth a driftwood crown.
EURON! shouted Left-Hand Lucas Codd.
EURON! CROWS EYE! EURON! cried the Red Oarsman.
The mutes and mongrels from the Silence threw open Eurons chests and spilled out his gifts
before the captains and the kings. Then it was Hotho Harlaw the priest heard, as he filled his
hands with gold. Gorold Goodbrother shouted out as well, and Erik Anvil-Breaker. EURON!
EURON! EURON! The cry swelled, became a roar. EURON! EURON! CROWS EYE!
EURON KING! It rolled up Naggas hill, like the Storm God rattling the clouds. EURON!
EURON! EURON! EURON! EURON! EURON!
Even a priest may doubt. Even a prophet may know terror. Aeron Damphair reached within
himself for his god and discovered only silence. As a thousand voices shouted out his brothers
name, all he could hear was the scream of a rusted iron hinge.

BRIENNE
East of Maidenpool the hills rose wild, and the pines closed in about them like a host of
silent grey-green soldiers.
Nimble Dick said the coast road was the shortest way, and the easiest, so they were seldom out
of sight of the bay. The towns and villages along the shore grew smaller as they went, and less
frequent. At nightfall they would seek an inn. Crabb would share the common bed with other
travelers, whilst Brienne took a room for her and Podrick. Cheaper if we all shared the same
bed, mlady, Nimble Dick would say. You could lay your sword between us. Old Dicks a
harmless fellow. Chivalrous as a knight, and honest as the day is long.
The days are growing shorter, Brienne pointed out.
Well, that may be. If you dont trust me in the bed, I could just curl up on the floor, mlady.
Not on my floor.
A man might think you dont trust me none.
Trust is earned. Like gold.
As you say, mlady, said Crabb, but up north where the road gives out, youll need t trust
Dick then. If I wanted t take your gold at swordpoint, whos to stop me?
You dont own a sword. I do.
She shut the door between them and stood there listening until she was certain he had moved
away. However nimble he might be, Dick Crabb was no Jaime Lannister, no Mad Mouse, not
even a Humfrey Wagstaff. He was scrawny and ill fed, his only armor a dinted halfhelm spotted
with rust. In place of a sword, he carried an old, nicked dagger. So long as she was awake, he
posed no danger to her. Podrick, she said, there will come a time when there are no more inns
to shelter us. I do not trust our guide. When we make camp, can you watch over me as I sleep?
Stay awake, my lady? Ser. He thought. I have a sword. If Crabb tries to hurt you, I could kill
him.
No, she said sternly. You are not to try and fight him. All I ask is that you watch him as I
sleep, and wake me if he does anything suspicious. I wake quickly, you will find.
Crabb showed his true colors the next day, when they stopped to water the horses. Brienne had
to step behind some bushes to empty her bladder. As she was squatting, she heard Podrick say,
What are you doing? You get away from there. She finished her business, hiked up her
breeches, and returned to the road to find Nimble Dick wiping flour off his fingers. You wont
find any dragons in my saddlebags, she told him. I keep my gold upon my person. Some of it
was in the pouch at her belt, the rest hidden in a pair of pockets sewn inside her clothing. The fat
purse inside her saddlebag was filled with coppers large and small, pennies and halfpennies,
groats and stars... and fine white flour, to make it fatter still. She had bought the flour from the
cook at the Seven Swords the morning she rode out from Duskendale.
Dick meant no harm, mlady. He wriggled his flour-spotted fingers to show he held no
weapon. I was only looking to see if you had these dragons what you promised me. The worlds
full o liars, ready to cheat an honest man. Not that youre one.

Brienne hoped he was a better guide than he was a thief. We had best be going. She mounted
up again.
Dick would oft sing as they rode along together; never a whole song, only a snatch of this and a
verse of that. She suspected that he meant to charm her, to put her off her guard. Sometimes he
would try to get her and Podrick to sing along with him, to no avail. The boy was too shy and
tongue-tied, and Brienne did not sing. Did you sing for your father? Lady Stark had asked her
once, at Riverrun. Did you sing for Renly? She had not, not ever, though she had wanted... she
had wanted...
When he was not singing, Nimble Dick would talk, regaling them with tales of Crackclaw
Point. Every gloomy valley had its lord, he said, the lot of them united only by their mistrust of
outsiders. In their veins the blood of the First Men ran dark and strong. The Andals tried t take
Crackclaw, but we bled them in the valleys and drowned them in the bogs. Only what their sons
couldnt win with swords, their pretty daughters won with kisses. They married into the houses
they couldnt conquer, aye.
The Darklyn kings of Duskendale had tried to impose their rule on Crackclaw Point; the
Mootons of Maidenpool had tried as well, and later the haughty Celtigars of Crab Isle. But the
Crackclaws knew their bogs and forests as no outsider could, and if hard pressed would vanish
into the caverns that honeycombed their hills. When not fighting would-be conquerors, they
fought each other. Their blood feuds were as deep and dark as the bogs between their hills. From
time to time some champion would bring peace to the Point, but it never lasted longer than his
lifetime. Lord Lucifer Hardy, he was a great one, and the Brothers Brune as well. Old
Crackbones even more so, but the Crabbs were the mightiest of all. Dick still refused to believe
that Brienne had never heard of Ser Clarence Crabb and his exploits.
Why would I lie? she asked him. Every place has its local heroes. Where I come from, the
singers sing of Ser Galladon of Morne, the Perfect Knight.
Ser Gallawho of What? He snorted. Never heard o him. Why was he so bloody perfect?
Ser Galladon was a champion of such valor that the Maiden herself lost her heart to him. She
gave him an enchanted sword as a token of her love. The Just Maid, it was called. No common
sword could check her, nor any shield withstand her kiss. Ser Galladon bore the Just Maid
proudly, but only thrice did he unsheathe her. He would not use the Maid against a mortal man,
for she was so potent as to make any fight unfair.
Crabb thought that was hilarious. The Perfect Knight? The Perfect Fool, he sounds like.
Whats the point o having some magic sword if you dont bloody well use it?
Honor, she said. The point is honor.
That only made him laugh the louder. Ser Clarence Crabb would have wiped his hairy arse
with your Perfect Knight, mlady. If theyd ever have met, thered be one more bloody head
sitting on the shelf at the Whispers, you ask me. I should have used the magic sword, itd be
saying to all the other heads. I should have used the bloody sword.

Brienne could not help but smile. Perhaps, she allowed, but Ser Galladon was no fool.
Against a foe eight feet tall mounted on an aurochs, he might well have unsheathed the Just
Maid. He used her once to slay a dragon, they say.
Nimble Dick was unimpressed. Crackbones fought a dragon too, but he didnt need no magic
sword. He just tied its neck in a knot, so every time it breathed fire it roasted its own arse.
And what did Crackbones do when Aegon and his sisters came? Brienne asked him.
He was dead. Mlady must know that. Crabb gave her a sideways look. Aegon sent his sister
up to Crackclaw, that Visenya. The lords had heard o Harrens end. Being no fools, they laid
their swords at her feet. The queen took them as her own men, and said theyd owe no fealty to
Maidenpool, Crab Isle, or Duskendale. Dont stop them bloody Celtigars from sending men to t
eastern shore to collect his taxes. If he sends enough, a few come back to him... elsewise, we
bow only to our own lords, and the king. The true king, not Robert and his ilk. He spat. There
was Crabbs and Brunes and Boggses with Prince Rhaegar on the Trident, and in the Kingsguard
too. A Hardy, a Cave, a Pyne, and three Crabbs, Clement and Rupert and Clarence the Short. Six
foot tall, he was, but short compared to the real Ser Clarence. Were all good dragon men, up
Crackclaw way.
The traffic continued to dwindle as they moved north and east, until finally there were no inns
to be found. By then the bayside road was more weeds than ruts. That night they took shelter in a
fishing village. Brienne paid the villagers a few coppers to allow them to bed down in a hay barn.
She claimed the loft for Podrick and herself, and pulled the ladder up after them.
You leave me down here alone, I could bloody well steal your horses, Crabb called up from
below. Best you get them up the ladder too, mlady. When she ignored him, he went on to say,
Its going to rain tonight. A cold hard rain. You and Pods will sleep all snug and warm, and
poor old Dick will be shivering down here by myself. He shook his head, muttering, as he made
a bed on a pile of hay. I never knew such a mistrustful maid as you.
Brienne curled up beneath her cloak, with Podrick yawning at her side. I was not always wary,
she might have shouted down at Crabb. When I was a little girl I believed that all men were as
noble as my father. Even the men who told her what a pretty girl she was, how tall and bright and
clever, how graceful when she danced. It was Septa Roelle who had lifted the scales from her
eyes. They only say those things to win your lord fathers favor, the woman had said. Youll
find truth in your looking glass, not on the tongues of men. It was a harsh lesson, one that left
her weeping, but it had stood her in good stead at Harrenhal when Ser Hyle and his friends had
played their game. A maid has to be mistrustful in this world, or she will not be a maid for long,
she was thinking, as the rain began to fall.
In the mle at Bitterbridge she had sought out her suitors and battered them one by one,
Farrow and Ambrose and Bushy, Mark Mullendore and Raymond Nayland and Will the Stork.
She had ridden over Harry Sawyer and broken Robin Potters helm, giving him a nasty scar. And
when the last of them had fallen, the Mother had delivered Connington to her. This time Ser
Ronnet held a sword and not a rose. Every blow she dealt him was sweeter than a kiss.

Loras Tyrell had been the last to face her wroth that day. Hed never courted her, had hardly
looked at her at all, but he bore three golden roses on his shield that day, and Brienne hated
roses. The sight of them had given her a furious strength. She went to sleep dreaming of the fight
theyd had, and of Ser Jaime fastening a rainbow cloak about her shoulders.
It was still raining the next morning. As they broke their fast, Nimble Dick suggested that they
wait for it to stop.
When will that be? On the morrow? In a fortnight? When summer comes again? No. We have
cloaks, and leagues to ride.
It rained all that day. The narrow track they followed soon turned to mud beneath them. What
trees they saw were naked, and the steady rain had turned their fallen leaves into a sodden brown
mat. Despite its squirrel-skin lining, Dicks cloak soaked through, and she could see him
shivering. Brienne felt a moments pity for the man. He has not eaten well, thats plain. She
wondered if there truly was a smugglers cove, or a ruined castle called the Whispers. Hungry
men do desperate things. This all might be some ploy to cozen her. Suspicion soured her
stomach.
For a time it seemed as though the steady wash of rain was the only sound in the world. Nimble
Dick plowed on, heedless. She watched closely, noting how he bent his back, as if huddling low
in the saddle would keep him dry. This time there was no village close at hand when darkness
came upon them. Nor were there any trees to give them shelter. They were forced to camp
amongst some rocks, fifty yards above the tideline. The rocks at least would keep the wind off.
Best we keep a watch tonight, mlady, Crabb told her, as she was struggling to get a driftwood
fire lit. A place like this, there might be squishers.
Squishers? Brienne gave him a suspicious look.
Monsters, Nimble Dick said, with relish. They look like men till you get close, but their
heads is too big, and they got scales where a proper mans got hair. Fish-belly white they are,
with webs between their fingers. Theyre always damp and fishy-smelling, but behind these
blubbery lips they got rows of green teeth sharp as needles. Some say the First Men killed them
all, but dont you believe it. They come by night and steal bad little children, padding along on
them webbed feet with a little squish-squish sound. The girls they keep to breed with, but the
boys they eat, tearing at them with those sharp green teeth. He grinned at Podrick. Theyd eat
you, boy. Theyd eat you raw.
If they try, Ill kill them. Podrick touched his sword.
You try that. You just try. Squishers dont die easy. He winked at Brienne. You a bad little
girl, mlady?
No. Just a fool. The wood was too damp to light, no matter how many sparks Brienne struck
off her flint and steel. The kindling sent up some smoke, but that was all. Disgusted, she settled
down with her back to a rock, pulled her cloak over herself, and resigned herself to a cold, wet
night. Dreaming of a hot meal, she gnawed on a strip of hard salt beef whilst Nimble Dick talked
about the time Ser Clarence Crabb had fought the squisher king. He tells a lively tale, she had to
admit, but Mark Mullendore was amusing too, with his little monkey.

It was too wet to see the sun go down, too grey to see the moon come up. The night was black
and starless. Crabb ran out of tales and went to sleep. Podrick was soon snoring too. Brienne sat
with her back to the rock, listening to the waves. Are you near the sea, Sansa? she wondered. Are
you waiting at the Whispers for a ship that will never come? Who do you have with you?
Passage for three, he said. Has the Imp joined you and Ser Dontos, or did you find your little
sister?
The day had been a long one, and Brienne was tired. Even sitting up against the rock, with rain
pattering softly all around her, she found her eyelids growing heavy. Twice she dozed. The
second time she woke all at once, heart pounding, convinced that someone was looming over
her. Her limbs were stiff, and her cloak had gotten tangled round her ankles. She kicked free of it
and stood. Nimble Dick was curled against a rock, half-buried in wet, heavy sand, asleep. A
dream. It was a dream.
Perhaps she had made a mistake in abandoning Ser Creighton and Ser Illifer. They had seemed
like honest men. Would that Jaime had come with me, she thought... but he was a knight of the
Kingsguard, his rightful place was with his king. Besides, it was Renly that she wanted. I swore I
would protect him, and I failed. Then I swore I would avenge him, and I failed at that as well. I
ran off with Lady Catelyn instead, and failed her too. The wind had shifted, and the rain was
running down her face.
The next day the road dwindled to a pebbled thread, and finally to a mere suggestion. Near
midday, it came to an abrupt end at the foot of a wind-carved cliff. Above, a small castle stood
frowning over the waves, its three crooked towers outlined against a leaden sky. Is that the
Whispers? Podrick asked.
That look a bloody ruin t you? Crabb spat. Thats the Dyre Den, where old Lord Brune
keeps his seat. Road ends here, though. Its the pines for us from here on.
Brienne studied the cliff. How do we get up there?
Easy. Nimble Dick turned his horse. Stay close t Dick. The squishers are apt t take the
laggards.
The way up proved to be a steep stony path hidden within a cleft in the rock. Most of it was
natural, but here and there steps had been carved to ease the climb. Sheer walls of rock, eaten
away by centuries of wind and spray, hemmed them in to either side. In some places they had
assumed fantastic shapes. Nimble Dick pointed out a few as they climbed. Theres an ogres
head, see? he said, and Brienne smiled when she saw it. And that theres a stone dragon.
Tother wing fell off when my father was a boy. Above it, thats the dugs drooping down, like
some hags teats. He glanced back at her own chest.
Ser? My lady? said Podrick. Theres a rider.
Where? None of the rocks suggested a rider to her.
On the road. Not a rock rider. A real rider. Following us. Down there. He pointed.
Brienne twisted in her saddle. They had climbed high enough to see for leagues along the shore.
The horse was coming up the same road they had taken, two or three miles behind them. Again?
She glanced at Nimble Dick suspiciously.

Dont squint at me, Crabb said. Hes naught t do with old Nimble Dick, whoever he is.
Some man o Brunes, most like, come back from the wars. Or one o them singers, wandering
from place to place. He turned his head and spat. Hes no squisher, thats bloody certain. Their
sort dont ride horses.
No, said Brienne. On that, at least, they could agree.
The last hundred feet of the climb proved the steepest and most treacherous. Loose pebbles
rolled beneath their horses hooves and went rattling down the stony path behind them. When
they emerged from the cleft in the rock, they found themselves under the castle walls. On a
parapet above, a face peered down at them, then vanished. Brienne thought it might have been a
woman, and said as much to Nimble Dick.
He agreed. Brunes too old to go climbing wallwalks, and his sons and grandsons went off to
the wars. No one left in there but wenches, and a snot-nosed babe or three.
It was on her lips to ask her guide which king Lord Brune had espoused, but it made no matter
any longer. Brunes sons were gone; some might not be coming back. We will have no
hospitality here tonight. A castle full of old men, women, and children was not like to open its
doors to armed strangers. You speak of Lord Brune as if you know him, she said to Nimble
Dick.
Might be I did, once.
She glanced at the breast of his doublet. Loose threads and a ragged patch of darker fabric
showed where some badge had been torn away. Her guide was a deserter, she did not doubt.
Could the rider behind them be one of his brothers-in-arms?
We should ride on, he urged, before Brune starts to wonder why were here beneath his
walls. Even a wench can wind a bloody crossbow. Dick gestured toward the limestone hills that
rose beyond the castle, with their wooded slopes. No more roads from here on, only streams and
game trails, but mlady need not fear. Nimble Dick knows these parts.
That was what Brienne was afraid of. The wind was gusting along the top of the cliff, but all
she could smell was a trap. What about that rider? Unless his horse could walk on waves, he
would soon be coming up the cliff.
What about him? If hes some fool from Maidenpool, he might not even find the bloody path.
And if he does, well lose him in the woods. He wont have no road to follow there.
Only our tracks. Brienne wondered if it wouldnt be better to meet the rider here, with her blade
in hand. Ill look an utter fool if it is a wandering singer or one of Lord Brunes sons. Crabb had
the right of it, she supposed. If he is still behind us on the morrow, I can deal with him then. As
you will, she said, turning her mare toward the trees.
Lord Brunes castle dwindled at their backs, and soon was lost to sight. Sentinels and soldier
pines rose all around them, towering green-clad spears thrusting toward the sky. The forest floor
was a bed of fallen needles as thick as a castle wall, littered with pinecones. The hooves of their
horses seemed to make no sound. It rained a bit, stopped for a time, then started once again, but
amongst the pines they scarce felt a drop.

The going was much slower in the woods. Brienne prodded her mare through the green gloom,
weaving in and out amongst the trees. It would be very easy to get lost here, she realized. Every
way she looked appeared the same. The very air seemed grey and green and still. Pine boughs
scratched against her arms and scraped noisily against her newly painted shield. The eerie
stillness grated on her more with every passing hour.
It bothered Nimble Dick as well. Late that day, as dusk was coming on, he tried to sing. A bear
there was, a bear, a bear, all black and brown, and covered with hair, he sang, his voice as
scratchy as a pair of woolen breeches. The pines drank his song, as they drank the wind and rain.
After a little while he stopped.
Its bad here, Podrick said. This is a bad place.
Brienne felt the same, but it would not serve to admit it. A pine wood is a gloomy place, but in
the end its just a wood. Theres naught here that we need fear.
What about the squishers? And the heads?
Theres a clever lad, said Nimble Dick, laughing.
Brienne gave him a look of annoyance. There are no squishers, she told Podrick, and no
heads.
The hills went up, the hills went down. Brienne found herself praying that Nimble Dick was
honest, and knew where he was taking them. By herself, she was not even certain she could have
found the sea again. Day or night, the sky was solid grey and overcast, with neither sun nor stars
to help her find her way.
They made camp early that night, after they came down a hill and found themselves on the edge
of a glistening green bog. In the grey-green light, the ground ahead looked solid enough, but
when theyd ridden out it had swallowed their horses up to their withers. They had to turn and
fight their way back onto more solid footing. Its no matter, Crabb assured them. Well go
back up the hill and come down another way.
The next day was the same. They rode through pines and bogs, under dark skies and
intermittent rain, past sinkholes and caves and the ruins of ancient strongholds whose stones
were blanketed in moss. Every heap of stones had a story, and Nimble Dick told them all. To
hear him tell it, the men of Crackclaw Point had watered their pine trees with blood. Briennes
patience soon began to fray. How much longer? she demanded finally. We must have seen
every tree in Crackclaw Point by now.
Not hardly, said Crabb. Were close now. See, the woods is thinning out. Were near the
narrow sea.
This fool he promised me is like to be my own reflection in a pond, Brienne thought, but it
seemed pointless to turn back when she had come so far. She was weary, though, she could not
deny that. Her thighs were hard as iron from the saddle, and of late she had been sleeping only
four hours a night, whilst Podrick watched over her. If Nimble Dick meant to try and murder
them, she was convinced it would happen here, on ground that he knew well. He could be taking
them to some robbers den where he had kin as treacherous as he was. Or perhaps he was just

leading them in circles, waiting for that rider to catch up. They had not seen any sign of the man
since leaving Lord Brunes castle, but that did not mean he had given up the hunt.
It may be that I will need to kill him, she told herself one night as she paced about the camp.
The notion made her queasy. Her old master-at-arms had always questioned whether she was
hard enough for battle. You have a mans strength in your arms, Ser Goodwin had said to her,
more than once, but your heart is as soft as any maids. It is one thing to train in the yard with a
blunted sword in hand, and another to drive a foot of sharpened steel into a mans gut and see the
light go out of his eyes. To toughen her, Ser Goodwin used to send her to her fathers butcher to
slaughter lambs and suckling pigs. The piglets squealed and the lambs screamed like frightened
children. By the time the butchering was done Brienne had been blind with tears, her clothes so
bloody that she had given them to her maid to burn. But Ser Goodwin still had doubts. A piglet
is a piglet. It is different with a man. When I was a squire young as you, I had a friend who was
strong and quick and agile, a champion in the yard. We all knew that one day he would be a
splendid knight. Then war came to the Stepstones. I saw my friend drive his foeman to his knees
and knock the axe from his hand, but when he might have finished he held back for half a
heartbeat. In battle half a heartbeat is a lifetime. The man slipped out his dirk and found a chink
in my friends armor. His strength, his speed, his valor, all his hard-won skill... it was worth less
than a mummers fart, because he flinched from killing. Remember that, girl.
I will, she promised his shade, there in the piney wood. She sat down on a rock, took out her
sword, and began to hone its edge. I will remember, and I pray I will not flinch.
The next day dawned bleak and cold and overcast. They never saw the sun come up, but when
the blackness turned to grey Brienne knew it was time to saddle up again. With Nimble Dick
leading the way, they rode back into the pines. Brienne followed close behind him, with Podrick
bringing up the rear upon his rounsey.
The castle came upon them without warning. One moment they were in the depths of the forest,
with nothing but pines to see for leagues and leagues. Then they rode around a boulder, and a
gap appeared ahead. A mile farther on, the forest ended abruptly. Beyond was sky and sea... and
an ancient, tumbledown castle, abandoned and overgrown on the edge of a cliff. The Whispers,
said Nimble Dick. Have a listen. You can hear the heads.
Podricks mouth gaped open. I hear them.
Brienne heard them too. A faint, soft murmuring that seemed to be coming from the ground as
much as from the castle. The sound grew louder as she neared the cliffs. It was the sea, she
realized suddenly. The waves had eaten holes in the cliffs below and were rumbling through
caves and tunnels beneath the earth. There are no heads, she said. Its the waves you hear
whispering.
Waves dont whisper. Its heads.
The castle was built of old, unmortared stones, no two the same. Moss grew thick in clefts
between the rocks, and trees were growing up from the foundations. Most old castles had a
godswood. By the look of it, the Whispers had little else. Brienne walked her mare to the cliffs
edge, where the curtain wall had collapsed. Mounds of poisonous red ivy grew over the heap of

broken stones. She tied the horse to a tree and edged as close to the precipice as she dared. Fifty
feet below, the waves were swirling in and over the remnants of a shattered tower. Behind it, she
glimpsed the mouth of a large cavern.
Thats the old beacon tower, said Nimble Dick as he came up behind her. It fell when I was
half as old as Pods here. Used to be steps down to the cove, but when the cliff collapsed they
went too. The smugglers stopped landing here after that. Time was, they could row their boats
into the cave, but no more. See? He put one hand on her back, and pointed with the other.
Briennes flesh prickled. One shove, and Ill be down there with the tower. She stepped back.
Keep your hands off me.
Crabb made a face. I was only...
I dont care what you were only. Wheres the gate?
Around tother side. He hesitated. This fool o yours, hes not a man to hold a grudge, is
he? he said nervously. I mean, last night I got to thinking that he might be angry at old Nimble
Dick, on account o that map I sold him, and how I left out that the smugglers dont land here no
more.
With the gold that youve got coming, you can give him back whatever he paid you for your
help. Brienne could not imagine Dontos Hollard posing a threat. That is, if hes even here.
They made a circuit of the walls. The castle had been triangular, with square towers at each
corner. Its gates were badly rotted. When Brienne tugged at one, the wood cracked and peeled
away in long wet splinters, and half the gate came down on her. She could see more green gloom
inside. The forest had breached the walls, and swallowed keep and bailey. But there was a
portcullis behind the gate, its teeth sunk deep into the soft muddy ground. The iron was red with
rust, but it held when Brienne rattled it. No ones used this gate for a long time.
I could climb over, offered Podrick. By the cliff. Where the wall fell down.
Its too dangerous. Those stones looked loose to me, and that red ivys poisonous. There has to
be a postern gate.
They found it on the north side of the castle, half-hidden behind a huge blackberry bramble.
The berries had all been picked, and half the bush had been hacked down to cut a path to the
door. The sight of the broken branches filled Brienne with disquiet. Someones been through
here, and recently.
Your fool and those girls, said Crabb. I told you.
Sansa? Brienne could not believe it. Even a wine-soaked sot like Dontos Hollard would have
better sense than to bring her to this bleak place. Something about the ruins filled her with
unease. She would not find the Stark girl here... but she had to have a look. Someone was here,
she thought. Someone who needed to stay hidden. Im going in, she said. Crabb, youll come
with me. Podrick, I want you to watch the horses.
I want to come too. Im a squire. I can fight.
Thats why I want you to stay here. There may be outlaws in these woods. We dare not leave
the horses unprotected.
Podrick scuffed at a rock with his boot. As you say.

She shouldered through the blackberries and pulled at a rusted iron ring. The postern door
resisted for a moment, then jerked open, its hinges screaming protest. The sound made the hairs
on the back of Briennes neck stand up. She drew her sword. Even in mail and boiled leather, she
felt naked.
Go on, mlady, urged Nimble Dick, behind her. What are you waiting for? Old Crabbs been
dead a thousand years.
What was she waiting for? Brienne told herself that she was being foolish. The sound was just
the sea, echoing endlessly through the caverns beneath the castle, rising and falling with each
wave. It did sound like whispering, though, and for a moment she could almost see the heads,
sitting on their shelves and muttering to one another. I should have used the sword one of them
was saying. I should have used the magic sword.
Podrick, said Brienne. Theres a sword and scabbard wrapped up in my bedroll. Bring them
here to me.
Yes, ser. My lady. I will. The boy went running off.
A sword? Nimble Dick scratched behind his ear. You got a sword in your hand. What do
you need another for?
This ones for you. Brienne offered him the hilt.
For true? Crabb reached out hesitantly, as if the blade might bite him. The mistrustful
maids giving old Dick a sword?
You do know how to use one?
Im a Crabb. He snatched the longsword from her hand. I got the same blood as old Ser
Clarence. He slashed the air and grinned at her. Its the sword that makes the lord, some say.
When Podrick Payne returned, he held Oathkeeper as gingerly as if it were a child. Nimble
Dick gave a whistle at the sight of the ornate scabbard with its row of lions heads, but grew
quiet when she drew the blade and tried a cut. Even the sound of it is sharper than an ordinary
sword. With me, she told Crabb. She slipped sideways through the postern, ducking her head
to pass beneath the doorways arch.
The bailey opened up before her, overgrown. To her left was the main gate, and the collapsed
shell of what might have been a stable. Saplings were poking out of half the stalls and growing
up through the dry brown thatch of its roof. To her right she saw rotted wooden steps descending
into the darkness of a dungeon or a root cellar. Where the keep had been was a pile of collapsed
stones, overgrown with green and purple moss. The yard was all weeds and pine needles. Soldier
pines were everywhere, drawn up in solemn ranks. In their midst was a pale stranger; a slender
young weirwood with a trunk as white as a cloistered maid. Dark red leaves sprouted from its
reaching branches. Beyond was the emptiness of sky and sea where the wall had collapsed...
... and the remnants of a fire.
The whispers nibbled at her ears, insistent. Brienne knelt beside the fire. She picked up a
blackened stick, sniffed at it, stirred the ashes. Someone was trying to keep warm last night. Or
else they were trying to send a signal to a passing ship.
Halloooooo, called Nimble Dick. Anyone here?

Be quiet, Brienne told him.
Someone might be hiding. Wanting to get a look at us before they show themself. He walked
to where the steps went down beneath the ground, and peered down into the darkness.
Hallooooo, he called again. Anyone down there?
Brienne saw a sapling sway. From the bushes slid a man, so caked with dirt that he looked as if
he had sprouted from the earth. A broken sword was in his hand, but it was his face that gave her
pause, the small eyes and wide flat nostrils.
She knew that nose. She knew those eyes. Pyg, his friends had called him.
Everything seemed to happen in a heartbeat. A second man slipped over the lip of the well,
making no more noise than a snake might make slithering across a pile of wet leaves. He wore an
iron halfhelm wrapped in stained red silk, and had a short, thick throwing spear in hand. Brienne
knew him too. From behind her came a rustling as a head poked down through the red leaves.
Crabb was standing underneath the weirwood. He looked up and saw the face. Here, he called
to Brienne. Its your fool.
Dick, she called urgently, to me.
Shagwell dropped from the weirwood, braying laughter. He was garbed in motley, but so faded
and stained that it showed more brown than grey or pink. In place of a jesters flail he had a
triple morningstar, three spiked balls chained to a wooden haft. He swung it hard and low, and
one of Crabbs knees exploded in a spray of blood and bone. Thats funny, Shagwell crowed
as Dick fell. The sword shed given him went flying from his hand and vanished in the weeds.
He writhed on the ground, screaming and clutching at the ruins of his knee. Oh, look, said
Shagwell, its Smuggler Dick, the one who made the map for us. Did you come all this way to
give us back our gold?
Please, Dick whimpered, please dont, my leg...
Does it hurt? I can make it stop.
Leave him be, said Brienne.
DONT! shrieked Dick, lifting bloody hands to shield his head. Shagwell whirled the spiked
ball once around his head and brought it down in the middle of Crabbs face. There was a
sickening crunch. In the silence that followed, Brienne could hear the sound of her own heart.
Bad Shags, said the man whod come creeping from the well. When he saw Briennes face,
he laughed. You again, woman? What, come to hunt us down? Or did you miss our friendly
faces?
Shagwell danced from foot to foot and spun his flail. Its me she come for. She dreams of me
every night, when she sticks her fingers up her slit. She wants me, lads, the big horse missed her
merry Shags! Im going to fuck her up the arse and pump her full of motley seed, until she
whelps a little me.
You need to use a different hole for that, Shags, said Timeon, in his Dornish drawl.
I best use all her holes, then. Just to make certain. He moved to her right as Pyg was circling
around to her left, forcing her back toward the ragged edge of the cliff. Passage for three,
Brienne remembered. There are only three of you.

Timeon shrugged. We all went our own ways, after we left Harrenhal. Urswyck and his lot
rode south for Oldtown. Rorge thought he might slip out at Saltpans. Me and my lads made for
Maidenpool, but we couldnt get near a ship. The Dornishman hefted his spear. You did for
Vargo with that bite, you know. His ear turned black and started leaking pus. Rorge and
Urswyck were for leaving, but the Goat says we got to hold his castle. Lord of Harrenhal, he says
he is, no one was going to take it off him. He said it slobbery, the way he always talked. We
heard the Mountain killed him piece by piece. A hand one day, a foot the next, lopped off neat
and clean. They bandaged up the stumps so Hoat didnt die. He was saving his cock for last, but
some bird called him to Kings Landing, so he finished it and rode off.
I am not here for you. I am looking for my... She almost said my sister. ... for a fool.
Im a fool, Shagwell announced happily.
The wrong fool, blurted Brienne. The one I want is with a highborn girl, the daughter of
Lord Stark of Winterfell.
Then its the Hound you want, said Timeon. Hes not here neither, as it happens. Just us.
Sandor Clegane? said Brienne. What do you mean?
Hes the one thats got the Stark girl. The way I hear it, she was making for Riverrun, and he
stole her. Damned dog.
Riverrun, thought Brienne. She was making for Riverrun. For her uncles. How do you know?
Had it from one of Berics bunch. The lightning lord is looking for her too. Hes sent his men
all up and down the Trident, sniffing after her. We chanced on three of them after Harrenhal, and
winkled the tale from one before he died.
He might have lied.
He might have, but he didnt. Later on, we heard how the Hound slew three of his brothers
men at an inn by the crossroads. The girl was with him there. The innkeep swore to it before
Rorge killed him, and the whores said the same. An ugly bunch, they were. Not so ugly as you,
mind you, but still...
He is trying to distract me, Brienne realized, to lull me with his voice. Pyg was edging closer.
Shagwell took a hop toward her. She backed away from them. They will back me off the cliff if I
let them. Stay away, she warned them.
I think Im going to fuck you up the nose, wench, Shagwell announced. Wont that be
amusing?
He has a very small cock, Timeon explained. Drop that pretty sword and might be well go
gentle on you, woman. We need gold to pay these smugglers, thats all.
And if I give you gold, youll let us go?
We will. Timeon smiled. Once youve fucked the lot of us. Well pay you like a proper
whore. A silver for each fuck. Or else well take the gold and rape you anyway, and do you like
the Mountain did Lord Vargo. Whats your choice?
This. Brienne threw herself toward Pyg.
He jerked his broken blade up to protect his face, but as he went high she went low. Oathkeeper
bit through leather, wool, skin, and muscle, into the sellswords thigh. Pyg cut back wildly as his

leg went out from under him. His broken sword scraped against her chainmail before he landed
on his back. Brienne stabbed him through the throat, gave the blade a hard turn, and slid it out,
whirling just as Timeons spear came flashing past her face. I did not flinch, she thought, as
blood ran red down her cheek. Did you see, Ser Goodwin? She hardly felt the cut.
Your turn, she told Timeon, as the Dornishman pulled out a second spear, shorter and thicker
than the first. Throw it.
So you can dance away and charge me? Id end up dead as Pyg. No. Get her, Shags.
You get her, Shagwell said. Did you see what she did to Pyg? Shes mad with moon blood.
The fool was behind her, Timeon in front. No matter how she turned, one was at her back.
Get her, urged Timeon, and you can fuck her corpse.
Oh, you do love me. The morningstar was whirling. Choose one, Brienne told herself.
Choose one and kill him quickly. Then a stone came out of nowhere, and hit Shagwell in the
head. Brienne did not hesitate. She flew at Timeon.
He was better than Pyg, but he had only a short throwing spear, and she had a Valyrian steel
blade. Oathkeeper was alive in her hands. She had never been so quick. The blade became a grey
blur. He wounded her in the shoulder as she came at him, but she slashed off his ear and half his
cheek, hacked the head off his spear, and put a foot of rippled steel into his belly through the
links of the chainmail byrnie he was wearing.
Timeon was still trying to fight as she pulled her blade from him, its fullers running red with
blood. He clawed at his belt and came up with a dagger, so Brienne cut his hand off. That one
was for Jaime. Mother have mercy, the Dornishman gasped, the blood bubbling from his
mouth and spurting from his wrist. Finish it. Send me back to Dorne, you bloody bitch.
She did.
Shagwell was on his knees when she turned, looking dazed as he fumbled for the morningstar.
As he staggered to his feet, another stone slammed him in the ear. Podrick had climbed the fallen
wall and was standing amongst the ivy glowering, a fresh rock in his hand. I told you I could
fight! he shouted down.
Shagwell tried to crawl away. I yield, the fool cried, I yield. You mustnt hurt sweet
Shagwell, Im too droll to die.
You are no better than the rest of them. You have robbed and raped and murdered.
Oh, I have, I have, I shant deny it... but Im amusing, with all my japes and capers. I make
men laugh.
And women weep.
Is that my fault? Women have no sense of humor.
Brienne lowered Oathkeeper. Dig a grave. There, beneath the weirwood. She pointed with
her blade.
I have no spade.
You have two hands. One more than you left Jaime.
Why bother? Leave them for the crows.

Timeon and Pyg can feed the crows. Nimble Dick will have a grave. He was a Crabb. This is
his place.
The ground was soft from rain, but even so it took the fool the rest of the day to dig down deep
enough. Night was falling by the time he was done, and his hands were bloody and blistered.
Brienne sheathed Oathkeeper, gathered up Dick Crabb, and carried him to the hole. His face was
hard to look on. Im sorry that I never trusted you. I dont know how to do that anymore.
As she knelt to lay the body down, she thought, The fool will make his try now, whilst my back
is turned.
She heard his ragged breathing half a heartbeat before Podrick cried out his warning. Shagwell
had a jagged chunk of rock clutched in one hand. Brienne had her dagger up her sleeve.
A dagger will beat a rock almost every time.
She knocked aside his arm and punched the steel into his bowels. Laugh, she snarled at him.
He moaned instead. Laugh, she repeated, grabbing his throat with one hand and stabbing at his
belly with the other. Laugh! She kept saying it, over and over, until her hand was red up to the
wrist and the stink of the fools dying was like to choke her. But Shagwell never laughed. The
sobs that Brienne heard were all her own. When she realized that, she threw down her knife and
shuddered.
Podrick helped her lower Nimble Dick into his hole. By the time they were done the moon was
rising. Brienne rubbed the dirt from her hands and tossed two dragons down into the grave.
Why did you do that, my lady? Ser? asked Pod.
It was the reward I promised him for finding me the fool.
Laughter sounded from behind them. She ripped Oathkeeper from her sheath and whirled,
expecting more Bloody Mummers... but it was only Hyle Hunt atop the crumbling wall, his legs
crossed. If there are brothels down in hell, the wretch will thank you, the knight called down.
Elsewise, thats a waste of good gold.
I keep my promises. What are you doing here?
Lord Randyll bid me follow you. If by some freaks chance you stumbled onto Sansa Stark, he
told me to bring her back to Maidenpool. Have no fear, I was commanded not to harm you.
Brienne snorted. As if you could.
What will you do now, my lady?
Cover him.
About the girl, I meant. The Lady Sansa.
Brienne thought a moment. She was making for Riverrun, if Timeon told it true. Somewhere
along the way she was taken by the Hound. If I find him...
... hell kill you.
Or Ill kill him, she said stubbornly. Will you help me cover up poor Crabb, ser?
No true knight could refuse such beauty. Ser Hyle climbed down from the wall. Together,
they shoved the dirt on top of Nimble Dick as the moon rose higher in the sky, and down below
the ground the heads of forgotten kings whispered secrets.

THE QUEENMAKER
Beneath the burning sun of Dorne, wealth was measured as much in water as in gold, so
every well was zealously guarded. The well at Shandystone had gone dry a hundred years before,
however, and its guardians had departed for some wetter place, abandoning their modest holdfast
with its fluted columns and triple arches. Afterward the sands had crept back in to reclaim their
own.
Arianne Martell arrived with Drey and Sylva just as the sun was going down, with the west a
tapestry of gold and purple and the clouds all glowing crimson. The ruins seemed aglow as well;
the fallen columns glimmered pinkly, red shadows crept across the cracked stone floors, and the
sands themselves turned from gold to orange to purple as the light faded. Garin had arrived a few
hours earlier, and the knight called Darkstar the day before.
It is lovely here, Drey observed as he was helping Garin water the horses. They had carried
their own water with them. The sand steeds of Dorne were swift and tireless, and would keep
going for long leagues after other horses had given out, but even such as they could not run dry.
How did you know of this place?
My uncle brought me here, with Tyene and Sarella. The memory made Arianne smile. He
caught some vipers and showed Tyene the safest way to milk them for their venom. Sarella
turned over rocks, brushed sand off the mosaics, and wanted to know everything there was to
know about the people who had lived here.
And what did you do, princess? asked Spotted Sylva.
I sat beside the well and pretended that some robber knight had brought me here to have his
way with me, she thought, a tall hard man with black eyes and a widows peak. The memory
made her uneasy. I dreamed, she said, and when the sun went down I sat cross-legged at my
uncles feet and begged him for a story.
Prince Oberyn was full of stories. Garin had been with them as well that day; he was
Ariannes milk brother, and they had been inseparable since before they learned to walk. He
told about Prince Garin, I remember, the one that I was named for.
Garin the Great, offered Drey, the wonder of the Rhoyne.
Thats the one. He made Valyria tremble.
They trembled, said Ser Gerold, then they killed him. If I led a quarter of a million men to
death, would they call me Gerold the Great? He snorted. I shall remain Darkstar, I think. At
least it is mine own. He unsheathed his longsword, sat upon the lip of the dry well, and began to
hone the blade with an oilstone.
Arianne watched him warily. He is highborn enough to make a worthy consort, she thought.
Father would question my good sense, but our children would be as beautiful as dragonlords. If
there was a handsomer man in Dorne, she did not know him. Ser Gerold Dayne had an aquiline
nose, high cheekbones, a strong jaw. He kept his face clean-shaven, but his thick hair fell to his
collar like a silver glacier, divided by a streak of midnight black. He has a cruel mouth, though,
and a crueler tongue. His eyes seemed black as he sat outlined against the dying sun, sharpening

his steel, but she had looked at them from a closer vantage and she knew that they were purple.
Dark purple. Dark and angry.
He must have felt her gaze upon him, for he looked up from his sword, met her eyes, and
smiled. Arianne felt heat rushing to her face. I should never have brought him. If he gives me
such a look when Arys is here, we will have blood on the sand. Whose, she could not say. By
tradition the Kingsguard were the finest knights in all the Seven Kingdoms... but Darkstar was
Darkstar.
The Dornish nights grow cold out upon the sands. Garin gathered wood for them, bleached
white branches from trees that had withered up and died a hundred years ago. Drey built a fire,
whistling as he struck sparks off his flint.
Once the kindling caught, they sat around the flames and passed a skin of summerwine from
hand to hand... all but Darkstar, who preferred to drink unsweetened lemonwater. Garin was in a
lively mood and entertained them with the latest tales from the Planky Town at the mouth of the
Greenblood, where the orphans of the river came to trade with the carracks, cogs, and galleys
from across the narrow sea. If the sailors could be believed, the east was seething with wonders
and terrors: a slave revolt in Astapor, dragons in Qarth, grey plague in Yi Ti. A new corsair king
had risen in the Basilisk Isles and raided Tall Trees Town, and in Qohor followers of the red
priests had rioted and tried to burn down the Black Goat. And the Golden Company broke its
contract with Myr, just as the Myrmen were about to go to war with Lys.
The Lyseni bought them off, suggested Sylva.
Clever Lyseni, Drey said. Clever, craven Lyseni.
Arianne knew better. If Quentyn has the Golden Company behind him... Beneath the gold the
bitter steel, was their cry. You will need bitter steel and more, brother, if you think to set me
aside. Arianne was loved in Dorne, Quentyn little known. No company of sellswords could
change that.
Ser Gerold rose. I believe Ill have a piss.
Watch where you set your feet, Drey cautioned. It has been a while since Prince Oberyn
milked the local vipers.
I was weaned on venom, Dalt. Any viper takes a bite of me will rue it. Ser Gerold vanished
through a broken arch.
When he was gone, the others exchanged glances. Forgive me, princess, said Garin softly,
but I do not like that man.
A pity, Drey said. I believe hes half in love with you.
We need him, Arianne reminded them. It may be that we will need his sword, and we will
surely need his castle.
High Hermitage is not the only castle in Dorne, Spotted Sylva pointed out, and you have
other knights who love you well. Drey is a knight.
I am, he affirmed. I have a wonderful horse and a very fine sword, and my valor is second
to... well, several, actually.
More like several hundred, ser, said Garin.

Arianne left them to their banter. Drey and Spotted Sylva were her dearest friends, aside from
her cousin Tyene, and Garin had been teasing her since both of them were drinking from his
mothers teats, but just now she was in no mood for japery. The sun was gone, and the sky was
full of stars. So many. She leaned her back against a fluted pillar and wondered if her brother
was looking at the same stars tonight, wherever he might be. Do you see the white one, Quentyn?
That is Nymerias star, burning bright, and that milky band behind her, those are ten thousand
ships. She burned as bright as any man, and so shall I. You will not rob me of my birthright!
Quentyn had been very young when he was sent to Yronwood; too young, according to their
mother. Norvoshi did not foster out their children, and Lady Mellario had never forgiven Prince
Doran for taking her son away from her. I like it no more than you do, Arianne had overheard
her father say, but there is a blood debt, and Quentyn is the only coin Lord Ormond will
accept.
Coin? her mother had screamed. He is your son. What sort of father uses his own flesh and
blood to pay his debts?
The princely sort, Doran Martell had answered.
Prince Doran was still pretending that her brother was with Lord Yronwood, but Garins mother
had seen him at the Planky Town, posing as a merchant. One of his companions had a lazy eye,
the same as Cletus Yronwood, Lord Anderss randy son. A maester traveled with them too, a
maester skilled in tongues. My brother is not as clever as he thinks. A clever man would have left
from Oldtown, even if it meant a longer voyage. In Oldtown he might have gone unrecognized.
Arianne had friends amongst the orphans of the Planky Town, and some had grown curious as to
why a prince and a lords son might be traveling under false names and seeking passage across
the narrow sea. One of them had crept through a window of a night, tickled the lock on
Quentyns little strongbox, and found the scrolls within.
Arianne would have given much and more to know that this secret trip across the narrow sea
was Quentyns own doing, and his alone... but parchments he had carried had been sealed with
the sun and spear of Dorne. Garins cousin had not dared break the seal to read them, but...
Princess. Ser Gerold Dayne stood behind her, half in starlight and half in shadow.
How was your piss? Arianne inquired archly.
The sands were duly grateful. Dayne put a foot upon the head of a statue that might have
been the Maiden till the sands had scoured her face away. It occurred to me as I was pissing that
this plan of yours may not yield you what you want.
And what is it I want, ser?
The Sand Snakes freed. Vengeance for Oberyn and Elia. Do I know the song? You want a
little taste of lion blood.
That, and my birthright. I want Sunspear, and my fathers seat. I want Dorne. I want justice.
Call it what you will. Crowning the Lannister girl is a hollow gesture. She will never sit the
Iron Throne. Nor will you get the war you want. The lion is not so easily provoked.
The lions dead. Who knows which cub the lioness prefers?

The one in her own den. Ser Gerold drew his sword. It glimmered in the starlight, sharp as
lies. This is how you start a war. Not with a crown of gold, but with a blade of steel.
I am no murderer of children. Put that away. Myrcella is under my protection. And Ser Arys
will permit no harm to come to his precious princess, you know that.
No, my lady. What I know is that Daynes have been killing Oakhearts for several thousand
years.
His arrogance took her breath away. It seems to me that Oakhearts have been killing Daynes
for just as long.
We all have our family traditions. Darkstar sheathed his sword. The moon is rising, and I see
your paragon approaching.
His eyes were sharp. The horseman on the tall grey palfrey did indeed prove to be Ser Arys,
white cloak fluttering bravely as he spurred across the sand. Princess Myrcella rode pillion
behind him, swaddled in a cowled robe that hid her golden curls.
As Ser Arys helped her from the saddle, Drey went to one knee before her. Your Grace.
My lady liege. Spotted Sylva knelt beside him.
My queen, I am your man. Garin dropped to both knees.
Confused, Myrcella clutched Arys Oakheart by the arm. Why do they call me Grace? she
asked in a plaintive voice. Ser Arys, what is this place, and who are they?
Has he told her nought? Arianne moved forward in a swirl of silk, smiling to put the child at
ease. They are my true and loyal friends, Your Grace... and would be your friends as well.
Princess Arianne? The girl threw her arms around her. Why do they call me queen? Did
something bad happen to Tommen?
He fell in with evil men, Your Grace, Arianne said, and I fear they have conspired with him
to steal your throne.
My throne? You mean, the Iron Throne? The girl was more confused than ever. He never
stole that, Tommen is...
... younger than you, surely?
I am older by a year.
That means the Iron Throne by rights is yours, Arianne said. Your brother is only a little
boy, you must not blame him. He has bad counselors... but you have friends. May I have the
honor of presenting them? She took the child by the hand. Your Grace, I give you Ser Andrey
Dalt, the heir to Lemonwood.
My friends call me Drey, he said, and I should be greatly honored if Your Grace would do
the same.
Though Drey had an open face and an easy smile, Myrcella regarded him warily. Until I know
you I must call you ser.
Whatever name Your Grace prefers, I am her man.
Sylva cleared her throat, till Arianne said, Might I present Lady Sylva Santagar, my queen?
My dearest Spotted Sylva.
Why do they call you that? Myrcella asked.

For my freckles, Your Grace, Sylva answered, though they all pretend it is because I am the
heir to Spottswood.
Garin was next, a loose-limbed, swarthy, long-nosed fellow with a jade stud in one ear. Here is
gay Garin of the orphans, who makes me laugh, said Arianne. His mother was my wet nurse.
I am sorry she is dead, Myrcella said.
Shes not, sweet queen. Garin flashed the golden tooth Arianne had bought him to replace the
one shed broken. Im of the orphans of the Greenblood, is what my lady means.
Myrcella would have time enough to learn the history of the orphans on her voyage up the river.
Arianne led her queen-to-be to the final member of her little band. Last, but first in valor, I give
you Ser Gerold Dayne, a knight of Starfall.
Ser Gerold went to one knee. The moonlight shone in his dark eyes as he studied the child
coolly.
There was an Arthur Dayne, Myrcella said. He was a knight of the Kingsguard in the days
of Mad King Aerys.
He was the Sword of the Morning. He is dead.
Are you the Sword of the Morning now?
No. Men call me Darkstar, and I am of the night.
Arianne drew the child away. You must be hungry. We have dates and cheese and olives, and
lemonsweet to drink. You ought not eat or drink too much, though. After a little rest, we must
ride. Out here on the sands it is always best to travel by night, before the sun ascends the sky. It
is kinder to the horses.
And the riders, Spotted Sylva said. Come, Your Grace, warm yourself. I should be honored
if youd let me serve you.
As she led the princess to the fire, Arianne found Ser Gerold behind her. My House goes back
ten thousand years, unto the dawn of days, he complained. Why is it that my cousin is the only
Dayne that anyone remembers?
He was a great knight, Ser Arys Oakheart put in.
He had a great sword, Darkstar said.
And a great heart. Ser Arys took Arianne by the arm. Princess, I beg a moments word.
Come. She led Ser Arys deeper into the ruins. Beneath his cloak, the knight wore a cloth-of-
gold doublet embroidered with the three green oak leaves of his House. On his head was a light
steel helm topped by a jagged spike, wound about with a yellow scarf in the Dornish fashion. He
might have passed for any knight, but for the cloak. Of shimmering white silk it was, pale as
moonlight and airy as a breeze. A Kingsguard cloak beyond all doubt, the gallant fool. How
much does the child know?
Little enough. Before we left Kings Landing, her uncle reminded her that I was her protector
and that any commands that I might give her were meant to keep her safe. She has heard them in
the streets as well, shouting out for vengeance. She knew this was no game. The girl is brave,
and wise beyond her years. She did all I asked of her, and never asked a question. The knight

took her arm, glanced about, lowered his voice. There are other tidings you should hear. Tywin
Lannister is dead.
That was a shock. Dead?
Murdered by the Imp. The queen has assumed the regency.
Has she? A woman on the Iron Throne? Arianne thought about that for a moment and
decided it was all to the good. If the lords of the Seven Kingdoms grew accustomed to Queen
Cerseis rule, it would be that much easier for them to bend their knees to Queen Myrcella. And
Lord Tywin had been a dangerous foe; without him, Dornes enemies would be much weaker.
Lannisters are killing Lannisters, how sweet. What became of the dwarf?
Hes fled, Ser Arys said. Cersei is offering a lordship to whosoever delivers her his head. In
a tiled inner courtyard half-buried by the drifting sands, he pushed her back against a column to
kiss her, and his hand went to her breast. He kissed her long and hard and would have pushed her
skirts up, but Arianne broke free of him, laughing. I see that queenmaking excites you, ser, but
we have no time for this. Later, I promise you. She touched his cheek. Did you meet with any
problems?
Only Trystane. He wanted to sit beside Myrcellas bedside and play cyvasse with her.
He had redspots when he was four, I told you. You can only get it once. You should have put
out that Myrcella was suffering from greyscale, that would have kept him well away.
The boy perhaps, but not your fathers maester.
Caleotte, she said. Did he try to see her?
Not once I described the red spots on her face. He said that nothing could be done until the
disease had run its course, and gave me a pot of salve to soothe her itching.
No one under ten ever died of redspots, but it could be mortal in adults, and Maester Caleotte
had never suffered it as a child. Arianne learned that when she suffered her own spots, at eight.
Good, she said. And the handmaid? Is she convincing?
From a distance. The Imp picked her for this purpose, over many girls of nobler birth.
Myrcella helped her curl her hair, and painted the dots on her face herself. They are distant kin.
Lannisport teems with Lannys, Lannetts, Lantells, and lesser Lannisters, and half of them have
that yellow hair. Dressed in Myrcellas bedrobe with the maesters salve smeared across her
face... she might even have fooled me, in a dim light. It was a deal harder to find a man to take
my place. Dake is closest to my height, but hes too fat, so I put Rolder in my armor and told him
to keep his visor down. The man is three inches shorter than I am, but perhaps no one will notice
if Im not there to stand beside him. Hell keep to Myrcellas chambers in any case.
All we need is a few days. By that time the princess will be beyond my fathers reach.
Where? He drew her close and nuzzled at her neck. Its time you told me the rest of the plan,
dont you think?
She laughed, pushing him away. No, its time we rode.
The moon had crowned the Moonmaid as they set out from the dust-dry ruins of Shandystone,
striking south and west. Arianne and Ser Arys took the lead, with Myrcella on a frisky mare
between them. Garin followed close behind with Spotted Sylva, whilst her two Dornish knights

took the rear. We are seven, Arianne realized as they rode. She had not thought of that before,
but it seemed a good omen for their cause. Seven riders on their way to glory. One day the
singers will make all of us immortal. Drey had wanted a larger party, but that might have
attracted unwelcome attention, and every additional man doubled the risk of betrayal. That much
my father taught me, at the least. Even when he was younger and stronger, Doran Martell had
been a cautious man much given to silences and secrets. It is time he put his burdens down, but I
will suffer no slights to his honor or his person. She would return him to his Water Gardens, to
live out what years remained him surrounded by laughing children and the smell of limes and
oranges. Yes, and Quentyn can keep him company. Once I crown Myrcella and free the Sand
Snakes, all Dorne will rally to my banners. The Yronwoods might declare for Quentyn, but alone
they were no threat. If they went over to Tommen and the Lannisters, she would have Darkstar
destroy them root and branch.
I am tired, Myrcella complained, after several hours in the saddle. Is it much farther? Where
are we going?
Princess Arianne is taking Your Grace to a place where youll be safe, Ser Arys assured her.
It is a long journey, Arianne said, but it will go easier once we reach the Greenblood. Some
of Garins people will meet us there, the orphans of the river. They live on boats, and pole them
up and down the Greenblood and its vassals, fishing and picking fruit and doing whatever work
needs doing.
Aye, Garin called out cheerfully, and we sing and play and dance on water, and know much
and more of healing. My mother is the best midwife in Westeros, and my father can cure warts.
How can you be orphans if you have mothers and fathers? the girl asked.
They are the Rhoynar, Arianne explained, and their Mother was the river Rhoyne.
Myrcella did not understand. I thought you were the Rhoynar. You Dornishmen, I mean.
We are in part, Your Grace. Nymerias blood is in me, along with that of Mors Martell, the
Dornish lord she married. On the day they wed, Nymeria fired her ships, so her people would
understand that there could be no going back. Most were glad to see those flames, for their
voyagings had been long and terrible before they came to Dorne, and many and more had been
lost to storm, disease, and slavery. There were a few who mourned, however. They did not love
this dry red land or its seven-faced god, so they clung to their old ways, hammered boats together
from the hulks of the burned ships, and became the orphans of the Greenblood. The Mother in
their songs is not our Mother, but Mother Rhoyne, whose waters nourished them from the dawn
of days.
Id heard the Rhoynar had some turtle god, said Ser Arys.
The Old Man of the River is a lesser god, said Garin. He was born from Mother River too,
and fought the Crab King to win dominion over all who dwell beneath the flowing waters.
Oh, said Myrcella.
I understand youve fought some mighty battles too, Your Grace, said Drey in his most
cheerful voice. It is said you show our brave Prince Trystane no mercy at the cyvasse table.

He always sets his squares up the same way, with all the mountains in the front and his
elephants in the passes, said Myrcella. So I send my dragon through to eat his elephants.
Does your handmaid play the game as well? asked Drey.
Rosamund? asked Myrcella. No. I tried to teach her, but she said the rules were too hard.
She is a Lannister as well? said Lady Sylva.
A Lannister of Lannisport, not a Lannister of Casterly Rock. Her hair is the same color as
mine, but straight instead of curly. Rosamund doesnt truly favor me, but when she dresses up in
my clothes people who dont know us think shes me.
You have done this before, then?
Oh, yes. We traded places on the Seaswift, on the way to Braavos. Septa Eglantine put brown
dye in my hair. She said we were doing it as a game, but it was meant to keep me safe in case the
ship was taken by my uncle Stannis.
The girl was plainly growing tired, so Arianne called a halt. They watered the horses once
again, rested for a bit, and had some cheese and fruit. Myrcella split an orange with Spotted
Sylva, whilst Garin ate olives and spit the stones at Drey.
Arianne had hoped to reach the river before the sun came up, but they had started much later
than shed planned, so they were still in the saddle when the eastern sky turned red. Darkstar
cantered up beside her. Princess, he said, Id set a faster pace, unless you mean to kill the
child after all. We have no tents, and by day the sands are cruel.
I know the sands as well as you do, ser, she told him. All the same, she did as he suggested. It
was hard on their mounts, but better she should lose six horses than one princess.
Soon enough the wind came gusting from the west, hot and dry and full of grit. Arianne drew
her veil across her face. It was made of shimmering silk, pale green above and yellow below, the
colors blending into one another. Small green pearls gave it weight, and rattled softly against
each other as she rode.
I know why my princess wears a veil, Ser Arys said as she was fastening it to the temples of
her copper helm. Elsewise her beauty would outshine the sun above.
She had to laugh. No, your princess wears a veil to keep the glare out of her eyes and the sand
out of her mouth. You should do the same, ser. She wondered how long her white knight had
been polishing his ponderous gallantry. Ser Arys was pleasant company abed, but wit and he
were strangers.
Her Dornishmen covered their faces as she did, and Spotted Sylva helped veil the little princess
from the sun, but Ser Arys stayed stubborn. Before long the sweat was running down his face,
and his cheeks had taken on a rosy blush. Much longer and he will cook in those heavy clothes,
she reflected. He would not be the first. In centuries past, many a host had come down from the
Princes Pass with banners streaming, only to wither and broil on the hot red Dornish sands.
The arms of House Martell display the sun and spear, the Dornishmans two favored weapons,
the Young Dragon had once written in his boastful Conquest of Dorne, but of the two, the sun is
the more deadly.

Thankfully, they did not need to cross the deep sands but only a sliver of the drylands. When
Arianne spied a hawk wheeling high above them against a cloudless sky, she knew the worst was
behind them. Soon they came upon a tree. It was a gnarled and twisted thing with as many thorns
as leaves, of the sort called sandbeggars, but it meant that they were not far from water.
Were almost there, Your Grace, Garin told Myrcella cheerfully when they spied more
sandbeggars up ahead, a thicket of them growing all around the dry bed of a stream. The sun was
beating down like a fiery hammer, but it did not matter with their journey at its end. They
stopped to water the horses again, drank deep from their skins and wet their veils, then mounted
for the last push. Within half a league they were riding over devilgrass and past olive groves.
Beyond a line of stony hills the grass grew greener and more lush, and there were lemon
orchards watered by a spiders web of old canals. Garin was the first to spy the river glimmering
green. He gave a shout and raced ahead.
Arianne Martell had crossed the Mander once, when she had gone with three of the Sand
Snakes to visit Tyenes mother. Compared to that mighty waterway, the Greenblood was scarce
worthy of the name of river, yet it remained the life of Dorne. It took its name from the murky
green of its sluggish waters; but as they approached, the sunlight seemed to turn those waters
gold. She had seldom seen a sweeter sight. The next part should be slow and simple, she thought,
up the Greenblood and onto the Vaith, as far as a poleboat can go. That would give her time
enough to prepare Myrcella for all that was to come. Beyond Vaith the deep sands waited. They
would need help from Sandstone and the Hellholt to make that crossing, but she did not doubt
that it would be forthcoming. The Red Viper had been fostered at Sandstone, and Prince
Oberyns paramour Ellaria Sand was Lord Ullers natural daughter; four of the Sand Snakes
were his granddaughters. I will crown Myrcella at the Hellholt and raise my banners there.
They found the boat half a league downstream, hidden beneath the drooping branches of a great
green willow. Low of roof and wide abeam, the poleboats had hardly any draft to speak of; the
Young Dragon had disparaged them as hovels built on rafts, but that was hardly fair. All but
the poorest orphan boats were wonderfully carved and painted. This one was done in shades of
green, with a curved wooden tiller shaped like a mermaid, and fish faces peering through her
rails. Poles and ropes and jars of olive oil cluttered her decks, and iron lanterns swung fore and
aft. Arianne saw no orphans. Where is her crew? she wondered.
Garin reined up beneath the willow. Wake up, you fish-eyed lagabeds, he called as he leapt
down from the saddle. Your queen is here, and wants her royal welcome. Come up, come out,
well have some songs and sweetwine. My mouth is set for
The door on the poleboat slammed open. Out into the sunlight stepped Areo Hotah, longaxe in
hand.
Garin jerked to a halt. Arianne felt as though an axe had caught her in the belly. It was not
supposed to end this way. This was not supposed to happen. When she heard Drey say, Theres
the last face Id hoped to see, she knew she had to act. Away! she cried, vaulting back into the
saddle. Arys, protect the princess

Hotah thumped the butt of his longaxe upon the deck. Behind the ornate rails of the poleboat, a
dozen guardsmen rose, armed with throwing spears or crossbows. Still more appeared atop the
cabin. Yield, my princess, the captain called, else we must slay all but the child and yourself,
by your fathers word.
Princess Myrcella sat motionless upon her mount. Garin backed slowly from the poleboat, his
hands in the air. Drey unbuckled his swordbelt. Yielding seems the wisest course, he called to
Arianne, as his sword thumped to the ground.
No! Ser Arys Oakheart put his horse between Arianne and the crossbows, his blade shining
silver in his hand. He had unslung his shield and slipped his left arm through the straps. You
will not take her whilst I still draw breath.
You reckless fool, was all that Arianne had time to think, what do you think youre doing?
Darkstars laughter rang out. Are you blind or stupid, Oakheart? There are too many. Put up
your sword.
Do as he says, Ser Arys, Drey urged.
We are taken, ser, Arianne might have called out. Your death will not free us. If you love your
princess, yield. But when she tried to speak, the words caught in her throat.
Ser Arys Oakheart gave her one last longing look, then put his golden spurs into his horse and
charged.
He rode headlong for the poleboat, his white cloak streaming behind him. Arianne Martell had
never seen anything half so gallant, or half so stupid. Noooo, she shrieked, but she had found
her tongue too late. A crossbow thrummed, then another. Hotah bellowed a command. At such
close range, the white knights armor had as well been made of parchment. The first bolt
punched right through his heavy oaken shield, pinning it to his shoulder. The second grazed his
temple. A thrown spear took Ser Aryss mount in the flank, yet still the horse came on,
staggering as he hit the gangplank. No, some girl was shouting, some foolish little girl, no,
please, this was not supposed to happen. She could hear Myrcella shrieking too, her voice shrill
with fear.
Ser Aryss longsword slashed right and left, and two spearmen went down. His horse reared,
and kicked a crossbowman in the face as he was trying to reload, but the other crossbows were
firing, feathering the big courser with their quarrels. The bolts hit home so hard they knocked the
horse sideways. His legs went out from under him and sent him crashing down the deck.
Somehow Arys Oakheart leapt free. He even managed to keep hold of his sword. He struggled to
his knees beside his dying horse...
... and found Areo Hotah standing over him.
The white knight raised his blade, too slowly. Hotahs longaxe took his right arm off at the
shoulder, spun away spraying blood, and came flashing back again in a terrible two-handed slash
that removed the head of Arys Oakheart and sent it spinning through the air. It landed amongst
the reeds, and the Greenblood swallowed the red with a soft splash.
Arianne did not remember climbing from her horse. Perhaps shed fallen. She did not remember
that either. Yet she found herself on her hands and feet in the sand, shaking and sobbing and

retching up her supper. No, was all that she could think, no, no one was to be hurt, it was all
planned, I was so careful. She heard Areo Hotah roar, After him. He must not escape. After
him! Myrcella was on the ground, wailing, shaking, her pale face in her hands, blood streaming
through her fingers. Arianne did not understand. Men were scrambling onto horses whilst others
swarmed over her and her companions, but none of it made sense. She had fallen into a dream,
some terrible red nightmare. This cannot be real. I will wake soon, and laugh at my night terrors.
When they sought to bind her hands behind her back, she did not resist. One of the guardsmen
jerked her to her feet. He wore her fathers colors. Another bent and seized the throwing knife
inside her boot, a gift from her cousin Lady Nym.
Areo Hotah took it from the man and frowned at it. The prince said I must bring you back to
Sunspear, he announced. His cheeks and brow were freckled with the blood of Arys Oakheart.
I am sorry, little princess.
Arianne raised a tear-streaked face. How could he know? she asked the captain. I was so
careful. How could he know?
Someone told. Hotah shrugged. Someone always tells.

ARYA
Each night before sleep, she murmured her prayer into her pillow. Ser Gregor, it went.
Dunsen, Raff the Sweetling, Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, Queen Cersei. She would have whispered
the names of the Freys of the Crossing too, if she had known them. One day Ill know, she told
herself, and then Ill kill them all.
No whisper was too faint to be heard in the House of Black and White. Child, said the kindly
man one day, what are those names you whisper of a night?
I dont whisper any names, she said.
You lie, he said. All men lie when they are afraid. Some tell many lies, some but a few.
Some have only one great lie they tell so often that they almost come to believe it... though some
small part of them will always know that it is still a lie, and that will show upon their faces. Tell
me of these names.
She chewed her lip. The names dont matter.
They do, the kindly man insisted. Tell me, child.
Tell me, or we will turn you out, she heard. Theyre people I hate. I want them to die.
We hear many such prayers in this House.
I know, said Arya. Jaqen Hghar had granted three of her prayers once. All I had to do was
whisper...
Is that why you have come to us? the kindly man went on. To learn our arts, so you may kill
these men you hate?
Arya did not know how to answer that. Maybe.
Then you have come to the wrong place. It is not for you to say who shall live and who shall
die. That gift belongs to Him of Many Faces. We are but his servants, sworn to do his will.
Oh. Arya glanced at the statues that stood along the walls, candles glimmering round their
feet. Which god is he?
Why, all of them, said the priest in black and white.
He never told her his name. Neither did the waif, the little girl with the big eyes and hollow face
who reminded her of another little girl, named Weasel. Like Arya, the waif lived below the
temple, along with three acolytes, two serving men, and a cook called Umma. Umma liked to
talk as she worked, but Arya could not understand a word she said. The others had no names, or
did not choose to share them. One serving man was very old, his back bent like a bow. The
second was red-faced, with hair growing from his ears. She took them both for mutes until she
heard them praying. The acolytes were younger. The eldest was her fathers age; the other two
could not have been much older than Sansa, who had been her sister. The acolytes wore black
and white too, but their robes had no cowls, and were black on the left side and white on the
right. With the kindly man and the waif, it was the opposite. Arya was given servants garb: a
tunic of undyed wool, baggy breeches, linen smallclothes, cloth slippers for her feet.
Only the kindly man knew the Common Tongue. Who are you? he would ask her every day.

No one, she would answer, she who had been Arya of House Stark, Arya Underfoot, Arya
Horseface. She had been Arry and Weasel too, and Squab and Salty, Nan the cupbearer, a grey
mouse, a sheep, the ghost of Harrenhal... but not for true, not in her heart of hearts. In there she
was Arya of Winterfell, the daughter of Lord Eddard Stark and Lady Catelyn, who had once had
brothers named Robb and Bran and Rickon, a sister named Sansa, a direwolf called Nymeria, a
half brother named Jon Snow. In there she was someone... but that was not the answer that he
wanted.
Without a common language, Arya had no way of talking to the others. She listened to them,
though, and repeated the words she heard to herself as she went about her work. Though the
youngest acolyte was blind, he had charge of the candles. He would walk the temple in soft
slippers, surrounded by the murmurings of the old women who came each day to pray. Even
without eyes, he always knew which candles had gone out. He has the scent to guide him, the
kindly man explained, and the air is warmer where a candle burns. He told Arya to close her
eyes and try it for herself.
They prayed at dawn before they broke their fast, kneeling around the still, black pool. Some
days the kindly man led the prayer. Other days it was the waif. Arya only knew a few words of
Braavosi, the ones that were the same in High Valyrian. So she prayed her own prayer to the
Many-Faced God, the one that went, Ser Gregor, Dunsen, Raff the Sweetling, Ser Ilyn, Ser
Meryn, Queen Cersei. She prayed in silence. If the Many-Faced God was a proper god, he
would hear her.
Worshipers came to the House of Black and White every day. Most came alone and sat alone;
they lit candles at one altar or another, prayed beside the pool, and sometimes wept. A few drank
from the black cup and went to sleep; more did not drink. There were no services, no songs, no
paeans of praise to please the god. The temple was never full. From time to time, a worshiper
would ask to see a priest, and the kindly man or the waif would take him down into the sanctum,
but that did not happen often.
Thirty different gods stood along the walls, surrounded by their little lights. The Weeping
Woman was the favorite of old women, Arya saw; rich men preferred the Lion of Night, poor
men the Hooded Wayfarer. Soldiers lit candles to Bakkalon, the Pale Child, sailors to the Moon-
Pale Maiden and the Merling King. The Stranger had his shrine as well, though hardly anyone
ever came to him. Most of the time only a single candle stood flickering at his feet. The kindly
man said it did not matter. He has many faces, and many ears to hear.
The knoll on which the temple stood was honeycombed with passageways hewn from the rock.
The priests and acolytes had their sleeping cells on the first level, Arya and the servants on the
second. The lowest level was forbidden to all save the priests. That was where the holy sanctum
lay.
When she was not working, Arya was free to wander as she would amongst the vaults and
storerooms, so long as she did not leave the temple, nor descend to the third cellar. She found a
room full of weapons and armor: ornate helms and curious old breastplates, longswords, daggers,
and dirks, crossbows and tall spears with leaf-shaped heads. Another vault was crammed with

clothing, thick furs and splendid silks in half a hundred colors, next to piles of foul-smelling rags
and threadbare roughspuns. There must be treasure chambers too, Arya decided. She pictured
stacks of golden plates, bags of silver coins, sapphires blue as the sea, ropes of fat green pearls.
One day the kindly man came on her unexpectedly and asked what she was doing. She told him
that she had gotten lost.
You lie. Worse, you lie poorly. Who are you?
No one.
Another lie. He sighed.
Weese would have beaten her bloody if he had caught her in a lie, but it was different in the
House of Black and White. When she was helping in the kitchen, Umma would sometimes
smack her with her spoon if she got in the way, but no one else ever raised a hand to her. They
only raise their hands to kill, she thought.
She got along well enough with the cook. Umma would slap a knife into her hand and point at
an onion, and Arya would chop it. Umma would shove her toward a mound of dough, and Arya
would knead it until the cook said stop (stop was the first Braavosi word she learned). Umma
would hand her a fish, and Arya would bone it and fillet it and roll it in the nuts the cook was
crushing. The brackish waters that surrounded Braavos teemed with fish and shellfish of every
sort, the kindly man explained. A slow brown river entered the lagoon from the south, wandering
through a wide expanse of reeds, tidal pools, and mudflats. Clams and cockles abounded
hereabouts; mussels and muskfish, frogs and turtles, mud crabs and leopard crabs and climber
crabs, red eels, black eels, striped eels, lampreys, and oysters; all made frequent appearances on
the carved wooden table where the servants of the Many-Faced God took their meals. Some
nights Umma spiced the fish with sea salt and cracked peppercorns, or cooked the eels with
chopped garlic. Once in a great while the cook would even use some saffron. Hot Pie would have
liked it here, Arya thought.
Supper was her favorite time. It had been a long while since Arya had gone to sleep every night
with a full belly. Some nights the kindly man would allow her to ask him questions. Once she
asked him why the people who came to the temple always seemed so peaceful; back home,
people were scared to die. She remembered how that pimply squire had wept when she stabbed
him in the belly, and the way Ser Amory Lorch had begged when the Goat had him thrown in the
bear pit. She remembered the village by the Gods Eye, and the way the villagers shrieked and
screamed and whimpered whenever the Tickler started asking after gold.
Death is not the worst thing, the kindly man replied. It is His gift to us, an end to want and
pain. On the day that we are born the Many-Faced God sends each of us a dark angel to walk
through life beside us. When our sins and our sufferings grow too great to be borne, the angel
takes us by the hand to lead us to the nightlands, where the stars burn ever bright. Those who
come to drink from the black cup are looking for their angels. If they are afraid, the candles
soothe them. When you smell our candles burning, what does it make you think of, my child?
Winterfell, she might have said. I smell snow and smoke and pine needles. I smell the stables. I
smell Hodor laughing, and Jon and Robb battling in the yard, and Sansa singing about some

stupid lady fair. I smell the crypts where the stone kings sit, I smell hot bread baking, I smell the
godswood. I smell my wolf, I smell her fur, almost as if she were still beside me. I dont smell
anything, she said, to see what he would say.
You lie, he said, but you may keep your secrets if you wish, Arya of House Stark. He only
called her that when she displeased him. You know that you may leave this place. You are not
one of us, not yet. You may go home anytime you wish.
You told me that if I left, I couldnt come back.
Just so.
Those words made her sad. Syrio used to say that too, Arya remembered. He said it all the time.
Syrio Forel had taught her needlework and died for her. I dont want to leave.
Then stay... but remember, the House of Black and White is not a home for orphans. All men
must serve beneath this roof. Valar dohaeris is how we say it here. Remain if you will, but know
that we shall require your obedience. At all times and in all things. If you cannot obey, you must
depart.
I can obey.
We shall see.
She had other tasks besides helping Umma. She swept the temple floors; she served and poured
at meals; she sorted piles of dead mens clothing, emptied their purses, and counted out stacks of
queer coins. Every morning she walked beside the kindly man as he made his circuit of the
temple to find the dead. Silent as a shadow, she would tell herself, remembering Syrio. She
carried a lantern with thick iron shutters. At each alcove, she would open the shutter a crack, to
look for corpses.
The dead were never hard to find. They came to the House of Black and White, prayed for an
hour or a day or a year, drank sweet dark water from the pool, and stretched out on a stone bed
behind one god or another. They closed their eyes, and slept, and never woke. The gift of the
Many-Faced God takes myriad forms, the kindly man told her, but here it is always gentle.
When they found a body he would say a prayer and make certain life had fled, and Arya would
fetch the serving men, whose task it was to carry the dead down to the vaults. There acolytes
would strip and wash the bodies. The dead mens clothes and coins and valuables went into a bin
for sorting. Their cold flesh would be taken to the lower sanctum where only the priests could
go; what happened in there Arya was not allowed to know. Once, as she was eating her supper, a
terrible suspicion seized hold of her, and she put down her knife and stared suspiciously at a slice
of pale white meat. The kindly man saw the horror on her face. It is pork, child, he told her,
only pork.
Her bed was stone, and reminded her of Harrenhal and the bed shed slept in when scrubbing
steps for Weese. The mattress was stuffed with rags instead of straw, which made it lumpier than
the one shed had at Harrenhal, but less scratchy too. She was allowed as many blankets as she
wished; thick woolen blankets, red and green and plaid. And her cell was hers alone. She kept
her treasures there: the silver fork and floppy hat and fingerless gloves given her by the sailors

on the Titans Daughter, her dagger, boots, and belt, her small store of coins, the clothes she had
been wearing...
And Needle.
Though her duties left her little time for needlework, she practiced when she could, dueling
with her shadow by the light of a blue candle. One night the waif happened to be passing and
saw Arya at her swordplay. The girl did not say a word, but the next day, the kindly man walked
Arya back to her cell. You need to rid yourself of all this, he said of her treasures.
Arya felt stricken. Theyre mine.
And who are you?
No one.
He picked up her silver fork. This belongs to Arya of House Stark. All these things belong to
her. There is no place for them here. There is no place for her. Hers is too proud a name, and we
have no room for pride. We are servants here.
I serve, she said, wounded. She liked the silver fork.
You play at being a servant, but in your heart you are a lords daughter. You have taken other
names, but you wore them as lightly as you might wear a gown. Under them was always Arya.
I dont wear gowns. You cant fight in a stupid gown.
Why would you wish to fight? Are you some bravo, strutting through the alleys, spoiling for
blood? He sighed. Before you drink from the cold cup, you must offer up all you are to Him of
Many Faces. Your body. Your soul. Yourself. If you cannot bring yourself to do that, you must
leave this place.
The iron coin
has paid your passage here. From this point you must pay your own way, and the cost is
dear.
I dont have any gold.
What we offer cannot be bought with gold. The cost is all of you. Men take many paths
through this vale of tears and pain. Ours is the hardest. Few are made to walk it. It takes
uncommon strength of body and spirit, and a heart both hard and strong.
I have a hole where my heart should be, she thought, and nowhere else to go. Im strong. As
strong as you. Im hard.
You believe this is the only place for you. It was as if hed heard her thoughts. You are
wrong in that. You would find softer service in the household of some merchant. Or would you
sooner be a courtesan, and have songs sung of your beauty? Speak the word, and we will send
you to the Black Pearl or the Daughter of the Dusk. You will sleep on rose petals and wear silken
skirts that rustle when you walk, and great lords will beggar themselves for your maidens blood.
Or if it is marriage and children you desire, tell me, and we shall find a husband for you. Some
honest apprentice boy, a rich old man, a seafarer, whatever you desire.
She wanted none of that. Wordless, she shook her head.
Is it Westeros you dream of, child? Luco Prestayns Lady Bright leaves upon the morrow, for
Gulltown, Duskendale, Kings Landing, and Tyrosh. Shall we find you passage on her?

I only just came from Westeros. Sometimes it seemed a thousand years since she had fled
Kings Landing, and sometimes it seemed like only yesterday, but she knew she could not go
back. Ill go if you dont want me, but I wont go there.
My wants do not matter, said the kindly man. It may be that the Many-Faced God has led
you here to be His instrument, but when I look at you I see a child... and worse, a girl child.
Many have served Him of Many Faces through the centuries, but only a few of His servants have
been women. Women bring life into the world. We bring the gift of death. No one can do both.
He is trying to scare me away, Arya thought, the way he did with the worm. I dont care about
that.
You should. Stay, and the Many-Faced God will take your ears, your nose, your tongue. He
will take your sad grey eyes that have seen so much. He will take your hands, your feet, your
arms and legs, your private parts. He will take your hopes and dreams, your loves and hates.
Those who enter His service must give up all that makes them who they are. Can you do that?
He cupped her chin and gazed deep into her eyes, so deep it made her shiver. No, he said, I do
not think you can.
Arya knocked his hand away. I could if I wanted to.
So says Arya of House Stark, eater of grave worms.
I can give up anything I want!
He gestured at her treasures. Then start with these.
That night after supper, Arya went back to her cell and took off her robe and whispered her
names, but sleep refused to take her. She tossed on her mattress stuffed with rags, gnawing on
her lip. She could feel the hole inside her where her heart had been.
In the black of night she rose again, donned the clothes shed worn from Westeros, and buckled
on her swordbelt. Needle hung from one hip, her dagger from the other. With her floppy hat on
her head, her fingerless gloves tucked into her belt, and her silver fork in one hand, she went
stealing up the steps. There is no place here for Arya of House Stark, she was thinking. Aryas
place was Winterfell, only Winterfell was gone. When the snows fall and the white winds blow,
the lone wolf dies, but the pack survives. She had no pack, though. They had killed her pack, Ser
Ilyn and Ser Meryn and the queen, and when she tried to make a new one all of them ran off, Hot
Pie and Gendry and Yoren and Lommy Greenhands, even Harwin, who had been her fathers
man. She shoved through the doors, out into the night.
It was the first time she had been outside since entering the temple. The sky was overcast, and
fog covered the ground like a frayed grey blanket. Off to her right she heard paddling from the
canal. Braavos, the Secret City, she thought. The name seemed very apt. She crept down the
steep steps to the covered dock, the mists swirling round her feet. It was so foggy she could not
see the water, but she heard it lapping softly at stone pilings. In the distance, a light glowed
through the gloom: the nightfire at the temple of the red priests, she thought.
At the waters edge she stopped, the silver fork in hand. It was real silver, solid through and
through. Its not my fork. It was Salty that he gave it to. She tossed it underhand, heard the soft
plop as it sank below the water.

Her floppy hat went next, then the gloves. They were Saltys too. She emptied her pouch into
her palm; five silver stags, nine copper stars, some pennies and halfpennies and groats. She
scattered them across the water. Next her boots. They made the loudest splashes. Her dagger
followed, the one shed gotten off the archer who had begged the Hound for mercy. Her
swordbelt went into the canal. Her cloak, tunic, breeches, smallclothes, all of it. All but Needle.
She stood on the end of the dock, pale and goosefleshed and shivering in the fog. In her hand,
Needle seemed to whisper to her. Stick them with the pointy end, it said, and, dont tell Sansa!
Mikkens mark was on the blade. Its just a sword. If she needed a sword, there were a hundred
under the temple. Needle was too small to be a proper sword, it was hardly more than a toy.
Shed been a stupid little girl when Jon had it made for her. Its just a sword, she said, aloud
this time...
... but it wasnt.
Needle was Robb and Bran and Rickon, her mother and her father, even Sansa. Needle was
Winterfells grey walls, and the laughter of its people. Needle was the summer snows, Old Nans
stories, the heart tree with its red leaves and scary face, the warm earthy smell of the glass
gardens, the sound of the north wind rattling the shutters of her room. Needle was Jon Snows
smile. He used to mess my hair and call me little sister, she remembered, and suddenly there
were tears in her eyes.
Polliver had stolen the sword from her when the Mountains men took her captive, but when
she and the Hound walked into the inn at the crossroads, there it was. The gods wanted me to
have it. Not the Seven, nor Him of Many Faces, but her fathers gods, the old gods of the north.
The Many-Faced God can have the rest, she thought, but he cant have this.
She padded up the steps as naked as her name day, clutching Needle. Halfway up, one of the
stones rocked beneath her feet. Arya knelt and dug around its edges with her fingers. It would
not move at first, but she persisted, picking at the crumbling mortar with her nails. Finally, the
stone shifted. She grunted and got both hands in and pulled. A crack opened before her.
Youll be safe here, she told Needle. No one will know where you are but me. She pushed
the sword and sheath behind the step, then shoved the stone back into place, so it looked like all
the other stones. As she climbed back to the temple, she counted steps, so she would know where
to find the sword again. One day she might have need of it. One day, she whispered to herself.
She never told the kindly man what she had done, yet he knew. The next night he came to her
cell after supper. Child, he said, come sit with me. I have a tale to tell you.
What kind of tale? she asked, wary.
The tale of our beginnings. If you would be one of us, you had best know who we are and how
we came to be. Men may whisper of the Faceless Men of Braavos, but we are older than the
Secret City. Before the Titan rose, before the Unmasking of Uthero, before the Founding, we
were. We have flowered in Braavos amongst these northern fogs, but we first took root in
Valyria, amongst the wretched slaves who toiled in the deep mines beneath the Fourteen Flames
that lit the Freeholds nights of old. Most mines are dank and chilly places, cut from cold dead
stone, but the Fourteen Flames were living mountains with veins of molten rock and hearts of

fire. So the mines of old Valyria were always hot, and they grew hotter as the shafts were driven
deeper, ever deeper. The slaves toiled in an oven. The rocks around them were too hot to touch.
The air stank of brimstone and would sear their lungs as they breathed it. The soles of their feet
would burn and blister, even through the thickest sandals. Sometimes, when they broke through a
wall in search of gold, they would find steam instead, or boiling water, or molten rock. Certain
shafts were cut so low that the slaves could not stand upright, but had to crawl or bend. And
there were wyrms in that red darkness too.
Earthworms? she asked, frowning.
Firewyrms. Some say they are akin to dragons, for wyrms breathe fire too. Instead of soaring
through the sky, they bore through stone and soil. If the old tales can be believed, there were
wyrms amongst the Fourteen Flames even before the dragons came. The young ones are no
larger than that skinny arm of yours, but they can grow to monstrous size and have no love for
men.
Did they kill the slaves?
Burnt and blackened corpses were oft found in shafts where the rocks were cracked or full of
holes. Yet still the mines drove deeper. Slaves perished by the score, but their masters did not
care. Red gold and yellow gold and silver were reckoned to be more precious than the lives of
slaves, for slaves were cheap in the old Freehold. During war, the Valyrians took them by the
thousands. In times of peace they bred them, though only the worst were sent down to die in the
red darkness.
Didnt the slaves rise up and fight?
Some did, he said. Revolts were common in the mines, but few accomplished much. The
dragonlords of the old Freehold were strong in sorcery, and lesser men defied them at their peril.
The first Faceless Man was one who did.
Who was he? Arya blurted, before she stopped to think.
No one, he answered. Some say he was a slave himself. Others insist he was a freeholders
son, born of noble stock. Some will even tell you he was an overseer who took pity on his
charges. The truth is, no one knows. Whoever he was, he moved amongst the slaves and would
hear them at their prayers. Men of a hundred different nations labored in the mines, and each
prayed to his own god in his own tongue, yet all were praying for the same thing. It was release
they asked for, an end to pain. A small thing, and simple. Yet their gods made no answer, and
their suffering went on. Are their gods all deaf? he wondered... until a realization came upon
him, one night in the red darkness.
All gods have their instruments, men and women who serve them and help to work their will
on earth. The slaves were not crying out to a hundred different gods, as it seemed, but to one god
with a hundred different faces... and he was that gods instrument. That very night he chose the
most wretched of the slaves, the one who had prayed most earnestly for release, and freed him
from his bondage. The first gift had been given.
Arya drew back from him. He killed the slave? That did not sound right. He should have
killed the masters!

He would bring the gift to them as well... but that is a tale for another day, one best shared
with no one. He cocked his head. And who are you, child?
No one.
A lie.
How do you know? Is it magic?
A man does not need to be a wizard to know truth from falsehood, not if he has eyes. You
need only learn to read a face. Look at the eyes. The mouth. The muscles here, at the corners of
the jaw, and here, where the neck joins the shoulders. He touched her lightly with two fingers.
Some liars blink. Some stare. Some look away. Some lick their lips. Many cover their mouths
just before they tell a lie, as if to hide their deceit. Other signs may be more subtle, but they are
always there. A false smile and a true one may look alike, but they are as different as dusk from
dawn. Can you tell dusk from dawn?
Arya nodded, though she was not certain that she could.
Then you can learn to see a lie... and once you do, no secret will be safe from you.
Teach me. She would be no one if that was what it took. No one had no holes inside her.
She will teach you, said the kindly man as the waif appeared outside her door. Starting with
the tongue of Braavos. What use are you if you cannot speak or understand? And you shall teach
her your own tongue. The two of you shall learn together, each from the other. Will you do
this?
Yes, she said, and from that moment she was a novice in the House of Black and White. Her
servants garb was taken away, and she was given a robe to wear, a robe of black and white as
buttery soft as the old red blanket shed once had at Winterfell. Beneath it she wore smallclothes
of fine white linen, and a black undertunic that hung down past her knees.
Thereafter she and the waif spent their time together touching things and pointing, as each tried
to teach the other a few words of her own tongue. Simple words at first, cup and candle and
shoe; then harder words; then sentences. Once Syrio Forel used to make Arya stand on one leg
until she was trembling. Later he sent her chasing after cats. She had danced the water dance on
the limbs of trees, a stick sword in her hand. Those things had all been hard, but this was harder.
Even sewing was more fun than tongues, she told herself, after a night when she had forgotten
half the words she thought she knew, and pronounced the other half so badly that the waif had
laughed at her. My sentences are as crooked as my stitches used to be. If the girl had not been so
small and starved, Arya would have smashed her stupid face. Instead she gnawed her lip. Too
stupid to learn and too stupid to give up.
The Common Tongue came to the waif more quickly. One day at supper she turned to Arya,
and asked, Who are you?
No one, Arya answered, in Braavosi.
You lie, said the waif. You must lie gooder.
Arya laughed. Gooder? You mean better, stupid.
Better stupid. I will show you.

The next day they began the lying game, asking questions of one another, taking turns.
Sometimes they would answer truly, sometimes they would lie. The questioner had to try and tell
what was true and what was false. The waif always seemed to know. Arya had to guess. Most of
the time she guessed wrong.
How many years have you? the waif asked her once, in the Common Tongue. Ten, said
Arya, and raised ten fingers. She thought she was still ten, though it was hard to know for
certain. The Braavosi counted days differently than they did in Westeros. For all she knew her
name day had come and gone.
The waif nodded. Arya nodded back, and in her best Braavosi said, How many years have
you?
The waif showed ten fingers. Then ten again, and yet again. Then six. Her face remained as
smooth as still water. She cant be six-and-thirty, Arya thought. Shes a little girl. Youre
lying, she said. The waif shook her head and showed her once again: ten and ten and ten and
six. She said the words for six-and-thirty, and made Arya say them too.
The next day she told the kindly man what the waif had claimed. She did not lie, the priest
said, chuckling. The one you call waif is a woman grown who has spent her life serving Him of
Many Faces. She gave Him all she was, all she ever might have been, all the lives that were
within her.
Arya bit her lip. Will I be like her?
No, he said, not unless you wish it. It is the poisons that have made her as you see her.
Poisons. She understood then. Every evening after prayer the waif emptied a stone flagon into
the waters of the black pool.
The waif and kindly man were not the only servants of the Many-Faced God. From time to time
others would visit the House of Black and White. The fat fellow had fierce black eyes, a hook
nose, and a wide mouth full of yellow teeth. The stern face never smiled; his eyes were pale, his
lips full and dark. The handsome man had a beard of a different color every time she saw him,
and a different nose, but he was never less than comely. Those three came most often, but there
were others: the squinter, the lordling, the starved man. One time the fat fellow and the squinter
came together. Umma sent Arya to pour for them. When you are not pouring, you must stand as
still as if you had been carved of stone, the kindly man told her. Can you do that?
Yes. Before you can learn to move you must learn to be still, Syrio Forel had taught her long
ago at Kings Landing, and she had. She had served as Roose Boltons cupbearer at Harrenhal,
and he would flay you if you spilled his wine.
Good, the kindly man said. It would be best if you were blind and deaf as well. You may
hear things, but you must let them pass in one ear and out the other. Do not listen.
Arya heard much and more that night, but almost all of it was in the tongue of Braavos, and she
hardly understood one word in ten. Still as stone, she told herself. The hardest part was
struggling not to yawn. Before the night was done, her wits were wandering. Standing there with
the flagon in her hands, she dreamed she was a wolf, running free through a moonlit forest with a
great pack howling at her heels.

Are the other men all priests? she asked the kindly man the next morning. Were those their
real faces?
What do you think, child?
She thought no. Is Jaqen Hghar a priest too? Do you know if Jaqen will be coming back to
Braavos?
Who? he said, all innocence.
Jaqen Hghar. He gave me the iron coin.
I know no one by this name, child.
I asked him how he changed his face, and he said it was no harder than taking a new name, if
you knew the way.
Did he?
Will you show me how to change my face?
If you wish. He cupped her chin in his hand and turned her head. Puff up your cheeks and
stick out your tongue.
Arya puffed up her cheeks and stuck out her tongue.
There. Your face is changed.
Thats not how I meant. Jaqen used magic.
All sorcery comes at a cost, child. Years of prayer and sacrifice and study are required to work
a proper glamor.
Years? she said, dismayed.
If it were easy all men would do it. You must walk before you run. Why use a spell, where
mummers tricks will serve?
I dont know any mummers tricks either.
Then practice making faces. Beneath your skin are muscles. Learn to use them. It is your face.
Your cheeks, your lips, your ears. Smiles and scowls should not come upon you like sudden
squalls. A smile should be a servant, and come only when you call it. Learn to rule your face.
Show me how.
Puff up your cheeks. She did. Lift your eyebrows. No, higher. She did that too. Good. See
how long you can hold that. It will not be long. Try it again on the morrow. You will find a
Myrish mirror in the vaults. Train before it for an hour every day. Eyes, nostrils, cheeks, ears,
lips, learn to rule them all. He cupped her chin. Who are you?
No one.
A lie. A sad little lie, child.
She found the Myrish mirror the next day, and every morn and every night she sat before it with
a candle on each side of her, making faces. Rule your face, she told herself, and you can lie.
Soon thereafter the kindly man commanded her to help the other acolytes prepare the corpses.
The work was not near as hard as scrubbing steps for Weese. Sometimes if the corpse was big or
fat she would struggle with the weight, but most of the dead were old dry bones in wrinkled
skins. Arya would look at them as she washed them, wondering what brought them to the black
pool. She remembered a tale she had heard from Old Nan, about how sometimes during a long

winter men whod lived beyond their years would announce that they were going hunting. And
their daughters would weep and their sons would turn their faces to the fire, she could hear Old
Nan saying, but no one would stop them, or ask what game they meant to hunt, with the snows
so deep and the cold wind howling. She wondered what the old Braavosi told their sons and
daughters, before they set off for the House of Black and White.
The moon turned and turned again, though Arya never saw it. She served, washed the dead,
made faces at the mirrors, learned the Braavosi tongue, and tried to remember that she was no
one.
One day the kindly man sent for her. Your accent is a horror, he said, but you have enough
words to make your wants understood after a fashion. It is time that you left us for a while. The
only way you will ever truly master our tongue is if you speak it every day from dawn to dusk.
You must go.
When? she asked him. Where?
Now, he answered. Beyond these walls you will find the hundred isles of Braavos in the sea.
You have been taught the words for mussels, cockles, and clams, have you not?
Yes. She repeated them, in her best Braavosi.
Her best Braavosi made him smile. It will serve. Along the wharves below the Drowned Town
you will find a fishmonger named Brusco, a good man with a bad back. He has need of a girl to
push his barrow and sell his cockles, clams, and mussels to the sailors off the ships. You shall be
that girl. Do you understand?
Yes.
And when Brusco asks, who are you?
No one.
No. That will not serve, outside this House.
She hesitated. I could be Salty, from Saltpans.
Salty is known to Ternesio Terys and the men of the Titans Daughter. You are marked by the
way you speak, so you must be some girl of Westeros... but a different girl, I think.
She bit her lip. Could I be Cat?
Cat. He considered. Yes. Braavos is full of cats. One more will not be noticed. You are Cat,
an orphan of...
Kings Landing. She had visited White Harbor with her father twice, but she knew Kings
Landing better.
Just so. Your father was oarmaster on a galley. When your mother died, he took you off to sea
with him. Then he died as well, and his captain had no use for you, so he put you off the ship in
Braavos. And what was the name of the ship?
Nymeria, she said at once.
That night she left the House of Black and White. A long iron knife rode on her right hip,
hidden by her cloak, a patched and faded thing of the sort an orphan might wear. Her shoes
pinched her toes and her tunic was so threadbare that the wind cut right through it. But Braavos
lay before her. The night air smelled of smoke and salt and fish. The canals were crooked, the

alleys crookeder. Men gave her curious looks as she went past, and beggar children called out
words she could not understand. Before long she was completely lost.
Ser Gregor, she chanted, as she crossed a stone bridge supported by four arches. From the
center of its span she could see the masts of ships in the Ragmans Harbor. Dunsen, Raff the
Sweetling, Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, Queen Cersei. Rain began to fall. Arya turned her face up to let
the raindrops wash her cheeks, so happy she could dance. Valar morghulis, she said, valar
morghulis, valar morghulis.

ALAYNE
As the rising sun came streaming through the windows, Alayne sat up in bed and
stretched. Gretchel heard her stir and rose at once to fetch her bedrobe. The rooms had grown
chilly during the night. It will be worse when winter has us in its grip, she thought. Winter will
make this place as cold as any tomb. Alayne slipped into the robe and belted it about her waist.
The fires almost out, she observed. Put another log on, if you would.
As my lady wishes, the old woman said.
Alaynes apartments in the Maidens Tower were larger and more lavish than the little
bedchamber where shed been kept when Lady Lysa was alive. She had a dressing room and a
privy of her own now, and a balcony of carved white stone that looked off across the Vale. While
Gretchel was tending to the fire, Alayne padded barefoot across the room and slipped outside.
The stone was cold beneath her feet, and the wind was blowing fiercely, as it always did up here,
but the view made her forget all that for half a heartbeat. Maidens was the easternmost of the
Eyries seven slender towers, so she had the Vale before her, its forests and rivers and fields all
hazy in the morning light. The way the sun was hitting the mountains made them look like solid
gold.
So lovely. The snow-clad summit of the Giants Lance loomed above her, an immensity of
stone and ice that dwarfed the castle perched upon its shoulder. Icicles twenty feet long draped
the lip of the precipice where Alyssas Tears fell in summer. A falcon soared above the frozen
waterfall, blue wings spread wide against the morning sky. Would that I had wings as well.
She rested her hands on the carved stone balustrade and made herself peer over the edge. She
could see Sky six hundred feet below, and the stone steps carved into the mountain, the winding
way that led past Snow and Stone all the way down to the valley floor. She could see the towers
and keeps of the Gates of the Moon, as small as a childs toys. Around the walls the hosts of
Lords Declarant were stirring, emerging from their tents like ants from an anthill. If only they
were truly ants, she thought, we could step on them and crush them.
Young Lord Hunter and his levies had joined the others two days past. Nestor Royce had closed
the Gates against them, but he had fewer than three hundred men in his garrison. Each of the
Lords Declarant had brought a thousand, and there were six of them. Alayne knew their names as
well as her own. Benedar Belmore, Lord of Strongsong. Symond Templeton, the Knight of
Ninestars. Horton Redfort, Lord of Redfort. Anya Waynwood, Lady of Ironoaks. Gilwood
Hunter, called Young Lord Hunter by all and sundry, Lord of Longbow Hall. And Yohn Royce,
mightiest of them all, the redoubtable Bronze Yohn, Lord of Runestone, Nestors cousin and the
chief of the senior branch of House Royce. The six had gathered at Runestone after Lysa Arryns
fall, and there made a pact together, vowing to defend Lord Robert, the Vale, and one another.
Their declaration made no mention of the Lord Protector, but spoke of misrule that must be
ended, and of false friends and evil counselors as well.
A cold gust of wind blew up her legs. She went inside to choose a gown to break her fast in.
Petyr had given her his late wifes wardrobe, a wealth of silks, satins, velvets, and furs far

beyond anything she had ever dreamed, though the great bulk of it was far too large for her;
Lady Lysa had grown very stout during her long succession of pregnancies, stillbirths, and
miscarriages. A few of the oldest gowns had been made for young Lysa Tully of Riverrun,
however, and others Gretchel had been able to alter to fit Alayne, who was almost as long of leg
at three-and-ten as her aunt had been at twenty.
This morning her eye was caught by a parti-colored gown of Tully red and blue, lined with vair.
Gretchel helped her slide her arms into the belled sleeves and laced her back, then brushed and
pinned her hair. Alayne had darkened it again last night before she went to bed. The wash her
aunt had given her changed her own rich auburn into Alaynes burnt brown, but it was seldom
long before the red began creeping back at the roots. And what must I do when the dye runs out?
The wash had come from Tyrosh, across the narrow sea.
As she went down to break her fast, Alayne was struck again by the stillness of the Eyrie. There
was no quieter castle in all the Seven Kingdoms. The servants here were few and old and kept
their voices down so as not to excite the young lord. There were no horses on the mountain, no
hounds to bark and growl, no knights training in the yard. Even the footsteps of the guards
seemed strangely muffled as they walked the pale stone halls. She could hear the wind moaning
and sighing round the towers, but that was all. When she had first come to Eyrie, there had been
the murmur of Alyssas Tears as well, but the waterfall was frozen now. Gretchel said it would
stay silent till the spring.
She found Lord Robert alone in the Morning Hall above the kitchens, pushing a wooden spoon
listlessly through a big bowl of porridge and honey. I wanted eggs, he complained when he
saw her. I wanted three eggs boiled soft, and some back bacon.
They had no eggs, no more than they had bacon. The Eyries granaries held sufficient oats and
corn and barley to feed them for a year, but they depended on a bastard girl named Mya Stone to
bring fresh foodstuffs up from the valley floor. With the Lords Declarant encamped at the foot of
the mountain there was no way for Mya to get through. Lord Belmore, first of the six to reach the
Gates, had sent a raven to tell Littlefinger that no more food would go up to the Eyrie until he
sent Lord Robert down. It was not quite a siege, not as yet, but it was the next best thing.
You can have eggs when Mya comes, as many as you like, Alayne promised the little
lordling. Shell bring eggs and butter and melons, all sorts of tasty things.
The boy was unappeased. I wanted eggs today.
Sweetrobin, there are no eggs, you know that. Please, eat your porridge, its very nice. She
ate a spoonful of her own.
Robert pushed his spoon across the bowl and back, but never brought it to his lips. I am not
hungry, he decided. I want to go back to bed. I never slept last night. I heard singing. Maester
Colemon gave me dreamwine but I could still hear it.
Alayne put down her spoon. If there had been singing, I should have heard it too. You had a
bad dream, thats all.
No, it wasnt a dream. Tears filled his eyes. Marillion was singing again. Your father says
hes dead, but he isnt.

He is. It frightened her to hear him talk like this. Bad enough that he is small and sickly, what
if he is mad as well? Sweetrobin, he is. Marillion loved your lady mother too much and could
not live with what hed done to her, so he walked into the sky. Alayne had not seen the body, no
more than Robert had, but she did not doubt the fact of the singers death. Hes gone, truly.
But I hear him every night. Even when I close the shutters and put a pillow on my head. Your
father should have cut his tongue out. I told him to, but he wouldnt.
He needed a tongue to confess. Be a good boy and eat your porridge, Alayne pleaded.
Please? For me?
I dont want porridge. Robert flung his spoon across the hall. It bounced off a hanging
tapestry, and left a smear of porridge upon a white silk moon. The lord wants eggs!
The lord shall eat porridge and be thankful for it, said Petyrs voice, behind them.
Alayne turned, and saw him in the doorway arch with Maester Colemon at his side. You
should heed the Lord Protector, my lord, the maester said. Your lords bannermen are coming
up the mountain to pay you homage, so you will need all your strength.
Robert rubbed at his left eye with a knuckle. Send them away. I dont want them. If they come,
Ill make them fly.
You tempt me sorely, my lord, but I fear I promised them safe conduct, said Petyr. In any
case, it is too late to turn them back. By now they may have climbed as far as Stone.
Why wont they leave us be? wailed Alayne. We never did them any harm. What do they
want of us?
Just Lord Robert. Him, and the Vale. Petyr smiled. There will be eight of them. Lord Nestor
is showing them up, and they have Lyn Corbray with them. Ser Lyn is not the sort of man to stay
away when blood is in the offing.
His words did little to soothe her fears. Lyn Corbray had slain almost as many men in duels as
he had in battle. He had won his spurs during Roberts Rebellion, she knew, fighting first against
Lord Jon Arryn at the gates of Gulltown, and later beneath his banners on the Trident, where he
had cut down Prince Lewyn of Dorne, a white knight of the Kingsguard. Petyr said that Prince
Lewyn had been sorely wounded by the time the tide of battle swept him to his final dance with
Lady Forlorn, but added, Thats not a point youll want to raise with Corbray, though. Those
who do are soon given the chance to ask Martell himself the truth of it, down in the halls of hell.
If even half of what she had heard from Lord Roberts guards was true, Lyn Corbray was more
dangerous than all six of the Lords Declarant put together. Why is he coming? she asked. I
thought the Corbrays were for you.
Lord Lyonel Corbray is well disposed toward my rule, said Petyr, but his brother goes his
own way. On the Trident, when their father fell wounded, it was Lyn who snatched up Lady
Forlorn and slew the man whod cut him down. Whilst Lyonel was carrying the old man back to
the maesters in the rear, Lyn led his charge against the Dornishmen threatening Roberts left,
broke their lines to pieces, and slew Lewyn Martell. So when old Lord Corbray died, he
bestowed the Lady upon his younger son. Lyonel got his lands, his title, his castle, and all his

coin, yet still feels he was cheated of his birthright, whilst Ser Lyn... well, he loves Lyonel as
much as he loves me. He wanted Lysas hand for himself.
I dont like Ser Lyn, Robert insisted. I wont have him here. You send him back down. I
never said that he could come. Not here. The Eyrie is impregnable, Mother said.
Your mother is dead, my lord. Until your sixteenth name day, I rule the Eyrie. Petyr turned to
the stoop-backed serving woman hovering near the kitchen steps. Mela, fetch his lordship a new
spoon. He wants to eat his porridge.
I do not! Let my porridge fly! This time Robert flung the bowl, porridge and honey and all.
Petyr Baelish ducked aside nimbly, but Maester Colemon was not so quick. The wooden bowl
caught him square in the chest, and its contents exploded upward over his face and shoulders. He
yelped in a most unmaesterlike fashion, while Alayne turned to soothe the little lordling, but too
late. The fit was on him. A pitcher of milk went flying as his hand caught it, flailing. When he
tried to rise he knocked his chair backwards and fell on top of it. One foot caught Alayne in the
belly, so hard it knocked the wind from her. Oh, gods be good, she heard Petyr say, disgusted.
Globs of porridge dotted Maester Colemons face and hair as he knelt over his charge,
murmuring soothing words. One gobbet crept slowly down his right cheek, like a lumpy grey-
brown tear. It is not so bad a spell as the last one, Alayne thought, trying to be hopeful. By the
time the shaking stopped, two guards in sky-blue cloaks and silvery mail shirts had come at
Petyrs summons. Take him back to bed and leech him, the Lord Protector said, and the taller
guardsman scooped the boy up in his arms. I could carry him myself, Alayne thought. He is no
heavier than a doll.
Colemon lingered a moment before following. My lord, this parley might best be left for
another day. His lordships spells have grown worse since Lady Lysas death. More frequent and
more violent. I bleed the child as often as I dare, and mix him dreamwine and milk of the poppy
to help him sleep, but...
He sleeps twelve hours a day, Petyr said. I require him awake from time to time.
The maester combed his fingers through his hair, dribbling globs of porridge on the floor.
Lady Lysa would give his lordship her breast whenever he grew overwrought. Archmaester
Ebrose claims that mothers milk has many heathful properties.
Is that your counsel, maester? That we find a wet nurse for the Lord of the Eyrie and Defender
of the Vale? When shall we wean him, on his wedding day? That way he can move directly from
his nurses nipples to his wifes. Lord Petyrs laugh made it plain what he thought of that. No,
I think not. I suggest you find another way. The boy is fond of sweets, is he not?
Sweets? said Colemon.
Sweets. Cakes and pies, jams and jellies, honey on the comb. Perhaps a pinch of sweetsleep in
his milk, have you tried that? Just a pinch, to calm him and stop his wretched shaking.
A pinch? The apple in the maesters throat moved up and down as he swallowed. One small
pinch... perhaps, perhaps. Not too much, and not too often, yes, I might try...
A pinch, Lord Petyr said, before you bring him forth to meet the lords.
As you command, my lord. The maester hurried out, his chain clinking softly with every step.

Father, Alayne asked when he was gone, will you have a bowl of porridge to break your
fast?
I despise porridge. He looked at her with Littlefingers eyes. Id sooner break my fast with a
kiss.
A true daughter would not refuse her sire a kiss, so Alayne went to him and kissed him, a quick
dry peck upon the cheek, and just as quickly stepped away.
How... dutiful. Littlefinger smiled with his mouth, but not his eyes. Well, I have other duties
for you, as it happens. Tell the cook to mull some red wine with honey and raisins. Our guests
will be cold and thirsty after their long climb. You are to meet them when they arrive, and offer
them refreshment. Wine, bread, and cheese. What sort of cheese is left to us?
The sharp white and the stinky blue.
The white. And youd best change as well.
Alayne looked down at her dress, the deep blue and rich dark red of Riverrun. Is it too
It is too Tully. The Lords Declarant will not be pleased by the sight of my bastard daughter
prancing about in my dead wifes clothes. Choose something else. Need I remind you to avoid
sky blue and cream?
No. Sky blue and cream were the colors of House Arryn. Eight, you said... Bronze Yohn is
one of them?
The only one who matters.
Bronze Yohn knows me, she reminded him. He was a guest at Winterfell when his son rode
north to take the black. She had fallen wildly in love with Ser Waymar, she remembered dimly,
but that was a lifetime ago, when she was a stupid little girl. And that was not the only time.
Lord Royce saw... he saw Sansa Stark again at Kings Landing, during the Hands tourney.
Petyr put a finger under her chin. That Royce glimpsed this pretty face I do not doubt, but it
was one face in a thousand. A man fighting in a tourney has more to concern him than some
child in the crowd. And at Winterfell, Sansa was a little girl with auburn hair. My daughter is a
maiden tall and fair, and her hair is chestnut. Men see what they expect to see, Alayne. He
kissed her nose. Have Maddy lay a fire in the solar. I shall receive our Lords Declarant there.
Not the High Hall?
No. Gods forbid they glimpse me near the high seat of the Arryns, they might think that I
mean to sit in it. Cheeks born so low as mine must never aspire to such lofty cushions.
The solar. She should have stopped with that, but the words came tumbling out of her. If you
gave them Robert...
... and the Vale?
They have the Vale.
Oh, much of it, thats true. Not all, however. I am well loved in Gulltown, and have some
lordly friends of mine own as well. Grafton, Lynderly, Lyonel Corbray... though Ill grant you,
they are no match for the Lords Declarant. Still, where would you have us go, Alayne? Back to
my mighty stronghold on the Fingers?
She had thought about that. Joffrey gave you Harrenhal. You are lord in your own right there.

By title. I needed a great seat to marry Lysa, and the Lannisters were not about to grant me
Casterly Rock.
Yes, but the castle is yours.
Ah, and what a castle it is. Cavernous halls and ruined towers, ghosts and draughts, ruinous to
heat, impossible to garrison... and theres that small matter of a curse.
Curses are only in songs and stories.
That seemed to amuse him. Has someone made a song about Gregor Clegane dying of a
poisoned spear thrust? Or about the sellsword before him, whose limbs Ser Gregor removed a
joint at a time? That one took the castle from Ser Amory Lorch, who received it from Lord
Tywin. A bear killed one, your dwarf the other. Lady Whents died as well, I hear. Lothstons,
Strongs, Harroways, Strongs... Harrenhal has withered every hand to touch it.
Then give it to Lord Frey.
Petyr laughed. Perhaps I shall. Or better still, to our sweet Cersei. Though I should not speak
harshly of her, she is sending me some splendid tapestries. Isnt that kind of her?
The mention of the queens name made her stiffen. Shes not kind. She scares me. If she
should learn where I am
I might have to remove her from the game sooner than Id planned. Provided she does not
remove herself first. Petyr teased her with a little smile. In the game of thrones, even the
humblest pieces can have wills of their own. Sometimes they refuse to make the moves youve
planned for them. Mark that well, Alayne. Its a lesson that Cersei Lannister still has yet to learn.
Now, dont you have some duties to perform?
She did indeed. She saw to the mulling of the wine first, found a suitable wheel of sharp white
cheese, and commanded the cook to bake bread enough for twenty, in case the Lords Declarant
brought more men than expected. Once they eat our bread and salt they are our guests and cannot
harm us. The Freys had broken all the laws of hospitality when theyd murdered her lady mother
and her brother at the Twins, but she could not believe that a lord as noble as Yohn Royce would
ever stoop to do the same.
The solar next. Its floor was covered by a Myrish carpet, so there was no need to lay down
rushes. Alayne asked two serving men to erect the trestle table and bring up eight of the heavy
oak-and-leather chairs. For a feast she would have placed one at the head of the table, one at the
foot, and three along each side, but this was no feast. She had the men arrange six chairs on one
side of the table, two on the other. By now the Lords Declarant might have climbed as far as
Snow. It took most of a day to make the climb, even on muleback. Afoot, most men took several
days.
It might be that the lords would talk late into the night. They would need fresh candles. After
Maddy laid the fire, she sent her down to find the scented beeswax candles Lord Waxley had
given Lady Lysa when he sought to win her hand. Then she visited the kitchens once again, to
make certain of the wine and bread. All seemed well in hand, and there was still time enough for
her to bathe and wash her hair and change.

There was a gown of purple silk that gave her pause, and another of dark blue velvet slashed
with silver that would have woken all the color in her eyes, but in the end she remembered that
Alayne was after all a bastard, and must not presume to dress above her station. The dress she
picked was lambswool, dark brown and simply cut, with leaves and vines embroidered around
the bodice, sleeves, and hem in golden thread. It was modest and becoming, though scarce richer
than something a serving girl might wear. Petyr had given her all of Lady Lysas jewels as well,
and she tried on several necklaces, but they all seemed ostentatious. In the end she chose a
simple velvet ribbon in autumn gold. When Gretchel fetched her Lysas silvered looking glass,
the color seemed just perfect with Alaynes mass of dark brown hair. Lord Royce will never
know me, she thought. Why, I hardly know myself.
Feeling near as bold as Petyr Baelish, Alayne Stone donned her smile and went down to meet
their guests.
The Eyrie was the only castle in the Seven Kingdoms where the main entrance was underneath
the dungeons. Steep stone steps crept up the mountainside past the waycastles Stone and Snow,
but they came to an end at Sky. The final six hundred feet of the ascent were vertical, forcing
would-be visitors to dismount their mules and make a choice. They could ride the swaying
wooden basket that was used to lift supplies, or clamber up a rocky chimney using handholds
carved into the rock.
Lord Redfort and Lady Waynwood, the most elderly of the Lords Declarant, chose to be drawn
up by the winch, after which the basket was lowered once more for fat Lord Belmore. The other
lords made the climb. Alayne met them in the Crescent Chamber beside a warming fire, where
she welcomed them in Lord Roberts name and served them bread and cheese and cups of hot
mulled wine in silver cups.
Petyr had given her a roll of arms to study, so she knew their heraldry if not their faces. The red
castle was Redfort, plainly; a short man with a neat grey beard and mild eyes. Lady Anya was
the only woman amongst the Lords Declarant, and wore a deep green mantle with the broken
wheel of Waynwood picked out in beads of jet. Six silver bells on purple, that was Belmore,
pear-bellied and round of shoulder. His beard was a ginger-grey horror sprouting from a
multiplicity of chins. Symond Templetons, by contrast, was black and sharply pointed. A beak
of a nose and icy blue eyes made the Knight of Ninestars look like some elegant bird of prey. His
doublet displayed nine black stars within a golden saltire. Young Lord Hunters ermine cloak
confused her till she spied the brooch that pinned it, five silver arrows fanned. Alayne would
have put his age closer to fifty than to forty. His father had ruled at Longbow Hall for nigh on
sixty years, only to die so abruptly that some whispered the new lord had hastened his
inheritance. Hunters cheeks and nose were red as apples, which bespoke a certain fondness for
the grape. She made certain to fill his cup as often as he emptied it.
The youngest man in the party had three ravens on his chest, each clutching a blood-red heart in
its talons. His brown hair was shoulder length; one stray lock curled down across his forehead.
Ser Lyn Corbray, Alayne thought, with a wary glance at his hard mouth and restless eyes.

Last of all came the Royces, Lord Nestor and Bronze Yohn. The Lord of Runestone stood as
tall as the Hound. Though his hair was grey and his face lined, Lord Yohn still looked as though
he could break most younger men like twigs in those huge gnarled hands. His seamed and
solemn face brought back all of Sansas memories of his time at Winterfell. She remembered
him at table, speaking quietly with her mother. She heard his voice booming off the walls when
he rode back from a hunt with a buck behind his saddle. She could see him in the yard, a practice
sword in hand, hammering her father to the ground and turning to defeat Ser Rodrik as well. He
will know me. How could he not? She considered throwing herself at his feet to beg for his
protection. He never fought for Robb, why should he fight for me? The war is finished and
Winterfell is fallen. Lord Royce, she asked timidly, will you have a cup of wine, to take the
chill off?
Bronze Yohn had slate-grey eyes, half-hidden beneath the bushiest eyebrows she had ever seen.
They crinkled when he looked down at her. Do I know you, girl?
Alayne felt as though she had swallowed her tongue, but Lord Nestor rescued her. Alayne is
the Lord Protectors natural daughter, he told his cousin gruffly.
Littlefingers little finger has been busy, said Lyn Corbray, with a wicked smile. Belmore
laughed, and Alayne could feel the color rising in her cheeks.
How old are you, child? asked Lady Waynwood.
Four-fourteen, my lady. For a moment she forgot how old Alayne should be. And I am no
child, but a maiden flowered.
But not deflowered, one can hope. Young Lord Hunters bushy mustache hid his mouth
entirely.
Yet, said Lyn Corbray, as if she were not there. But ripe for plucking soon, Id say.
Is that what passes for courtesy at Hearts Home? Anya Waynwoods hair was greying and
she had crows-feet around her eyes and loose skin beneath her chin, but there was no mistaking
the air of nobility about her. The girl is young and gently bred, and has suffered enough horrors.
Mind your tongue, ser.
My tongue is my concern, Corbray replied. Your ladyship should take care to mind her own.
I have never taken kindly to chastisement, as any number of dead men could tell you.
Lady Waynwood turned away from him. Best take us to your father, Alayne. The sooner we
are done with this, the better.
The Lord Protector awaits you in the solar. If my lords would follow me. From the Crescent
Chamber they climbed a steep flight of marble steps that bypassed both undercrofts and
dungeons and passed beneath three murder holes, which the Lords Declarant pretended not to
notice. Belmore was soon puffing like a bellows, and Redforts face turned as grey as his hair.
The guards atop the stairs raised the portcullis at their coming. This way, if it please my lords.
Alayne led them down the arcade past a dozen splendid tapestries. Ser Lothor Brune stood
outside the solar. He opened the door for them and followed them inside.
Petyr was seated at the trestle table with a cup of wine to hand, looking over a crisp white
parchment. He glanced up as the Lords Declarant filed in. My lords, be welcome. And you as

well, my lady. The ascent is wearisome, I know. Please be seated. Alayne, my sweet, more wine
for our noble guests.
As you say, Father. The candles had been lighted, she was pleased to see; the solar smelled of
nutmeg and other costly spices. She went to fetch the flagon whilst the visitors arranged
themselves side by side... all save Nestor Royce, who hesitated before walking around the table
to take the empty chair beside Lord Petyr, and Lyn Corbray, who went to stand beside the hearth
instead. The heart-shaped ruby in the pommel of his sword shone redly as he warmed his hands.
Alayne saw him smile at Ser Lothor Brune. Ser Lyn is very handsome, for an older man, she
thought, but I do not like the way he smiles.
I have been reading this remarkable declaration of yours, Petyr began. Splendid. Whatever
maester wrote this has a gift for words. I only wish you had invited me to sign as well.
That took them unawares. You? said Belmore. Sign?
I wield a quill as well as any man, and no one loves Lord Robert more than I do. As for these
false friends and evil counselors, by all means let us root them out. My lords, I am with you,
heart and hand. Show me where to sign, I beg you.
Alayne, pouring, heard Lyn Corbray chuckle. The others seemed at a loss till Bronze Yohn
Royce cracked his knuckles, and said, We did not come for your signature. Nor do we mean to
bandy words with you, Littlefinger.
What a pity. I do so love a nicely bandied word. Petyr set the parchment to one side. As you
wish. Let us be blunt. What would you have of me, my lords and lady?
We will have naught of you. Symond Templeton fixed the Lord Protector with his cold blue
stare. We will have you gone.
Gone? Petyr feigned surprise. Where would I go?
The crown has made you Lord of Harrenhal, Young Lord Hunter pointed out. That should
be enough for any man.
The riverlands have need of a lord, old Horton Redfort said. Riverrun stands besieged,
Bracken and Blackwood are at open war, and outlaws roam freely on both sides of the Trident,
stealing and killing as they will. Unburied corpses litter the landscape everywhere you go.
You make it sound so wonderfully attractive, Lord Redfort, Petyr answered, but as it
happens I have pressing duties here. And there is Lord Robert to consider. Would you have me
drag a sickly child into the midst of such carnage?
His lordship will remain in the Vale, declared Yohn Royce.
I mean to take the boy with me to Runestone, and raise him up to be a knight that Jon Arryn
would be proud of.
Why Runestone? Petyr mused. Why not Ironoaks or the Redfort? Why not Longbow Hall?
Any of these would serve as well, declared Lord Belmore, and his lordship will visit each in
turn, in due time.
Will he? Petyrs tone seemed to hint at doubts.
Lady Waynwood sighed. Lord Petyr, if you think to set us one against the other, you may
spare yourself the effort. We speak with one voice here. Runestone suits us all. Lord Yohn raised

three fine sons of his own, there is no man more fit to foster his young lordship. Maester
Helliweg is a good deal older and more experienced than your own Maester Colemon, and better
suited to treat Lord Roberts frailties. In Runestone the boy will learn the arts of war from Strong
Sam Stone. No man could hope for a finer master-at-arms. Septon Lucos will instruct him in
matters of the spirit. At Runestone he will also find other boys his own age, more suitable
companions than the old women and sellswords that presently surround him.
Petyr Baelish fingered his beard. His lordship needs companions, I do not disagree. Alayne is
hardly an old woman, though. Lord Robert loves my daughter dearly, he will be glad to tell you
so himself. And as it happens, I have asked Lord Grafton and Lord Lynderly to send me each a
son to ward. Each of them has a boy of an age with Robert.
Lyn Corbray laughed. Two pups from a pair of lapdogs.
Robert should have an older boy about him too. A promising young squire, say. Someone he
could admire and try to emulate. Petyr turned to Lady Waynwood. You have such a boy at
Ironoaks, my lady. Perhaps you might agree to send me Harrold Hardyng.
Anya Waynwood seemed amused. Lord Petyr, you are as bold a thief as Id ever care to meet.
I do not wish to steal the boy, said Petyr, but he and Lord Robert should be friends.
Bronze Yohn Royce leaned forward. It is meet and proper that Lord Robert should befriend
young Harry, and he shall... at Runestone, under my care, as my ward and squire.
Give us the boy, said Lord Belmore, and you may depart the Vale unmolested for your
proper seat at Harrenhal.
Petyr gave him a look of mild reproach. Are you suggesting that elsewise I might come to
harm, my lord? I cannot think why. My late wife seemed to think this was my proper seat.
Lord Baelish, Lady Waynwood said, Lysa Tully was Jon Arryns widow and the mother of
his child, and ruled here as his regent. You... let us be frank, you are no Arryn, and Lord Robert
is no blood of yours. By what right do you presume to rule us?
Lysa named me Lord Protector, I do seem to recall.
Young Lord Hunter said, Lysa Tully was never truly of the Vale, nor had she the right to
dispose of us.
And Lord Robert? Petyr asked. Will your lordship also claim that Lady Lysa had no right to
dispose of her own son?
Nestor Royce had been silent all this while, but now he spoke up loudly. I once hoped to wed
Lady Lysa myself. As did Lord Hunters father and Lady Anyas son. Corbray scarce left her
side for half a year. Had she chosen any one of us, no man here would dispute his right to be the
Lord Protector. It happens that she chose Lord Littlefinger, and entrusted her son to his care.
He was Jon Arryns son as well, cousin, Bronze Yohn said, frowning at the Keeper. He
belongs to the Vale.
Petyr feigned puzzlement. The Eyrie is as much a part of the Vale as Runestone. Unless
someone has moved it?
Jape all you like, Littlefinger, Lord Belmore blustered. The boy shall come with us.

I am loath to disappoint you, Lord Belmore, but my stepson will be remaining here with me.
He is not a robust child, as all of you know well. The journey would tax him sorely. As his
stepfather and Lord Protector, I cannot permit it.
Symond Templeton cleared his throat, and said, Each of us has a thousand men at the foot of
this mountain, Littlefinger.
What a splendid place for them.
If need be, we can summon many more.
Are you threatening me with war, ser? Petyr did not sound the least afraid.
Bronze Yohn said, We shall have Lord Robert.
For a moment it seemed as though they had come to an impasse, until Lyn Corbray turned from
the fire. All this talk makes me ill. Littlefinger will talk you out of your smallclothes if you
listen long enough. The only way to settle his sort is with steel. He drew his longsword.
Petyr spread his hands. I wear no sword, ser.
Easily remedied. Candlelight rippled along the smoke-grey steel of Corbrays blade, so dark
that it put Sansa in mind of Ice, her fathers greatsword. Your apple-eater holds a blade. Tell
him to give it to you, or draw that dagger.
She saw Lothor Brune reach for his own sword, but before the blades could meet Bronze Yohn
rose in wrath. Put up your steel, ser! Are you a Corbray or a Frey? We are guests here.
Lady Waynwood pursed her lips, and said, This is unseemly.
Sheathe your sword, Corbray, Young Lord Hunter echoed. You shame us all with this.
Come, Lyn, chided Redfort in a softer tone. This will serve for nought. Put Lady Forlorn to
bed.
My lady has a thirst, Ser Lyn insisted. Whenever she comes out to dance, she likes a drop of
red.
Your lady must go thirsty. Bronze Yohn put himself squarely in Corbrays path.
The Lords Declarant. Lyn Corbray snorted. You should have named yourselves the Six Old
Women. He slid the dark sword back into its scabbard and left them, shouldering Brune aside as
if he were not there. Alayne listened to his footsteps recede.
Anya Waynwood and Horton Redfort exchanged a look. Hunter drained his wine cup and held
it out to be refilled. Lord Baelish, Ser Symond said, you must forgive us that display.
Must I? Littlefingers voice had grown cold. You brought him here, my lords.
Bronze Yohn said, It was never our intent
You brought him here. I would be well within my rights to call my guards and have all of you
arrested.
Hunter lurched to his feet so wildly that he almost knocked the flagon out of Alaynes hands.
You gave us safe conduct!
Yes. Be grateful that I have more honor than some. Petyr sounded as angry as she had ever
heard him. I have read your declaration and heard your demands. Now hear mine. Remove your
armies from this mountain. Go home and leave my son in peace. Misrule there has been, I will

not deny it, but that was Lysas work, not mine. Grant me but a year, and with Lord Nestors
help I promise that none of you shall have any cause for grievance.
So you say, said Belmore. Yet how shall we trust you?
You dare call me untrustworthy? It was not me who bared steel at a parley. You write of
defending Lord Robert even as you deny him food. That must end. I am no warrior, but I will
fight you if you do not lift this siege. There are other lords besides you in the Vale, and Kings
Landing will send men as well. If it is war you want, say so now and the Vale will bleed.
Alayne could see the doubt blooming in the eyes of the Lords Declarant. A year is not so long
a time, Lord Redfort said uncertainly. Mayhaps... if you gave assurances...
None of us wants war, acknowledged Lady Waynwood. Autumn wanes, and we must gird
ourselves for winter.
Belmore cleared his throat. At the end of this year...
... if I have not set the Vale to rights, I shall willingly step down as Lord Protector, Petyr
promised them.
I call that more than fair, Lord Nestor Royce put in.
There must be no reprisals, insisted Templeton. No talk of treason or rebellion. You must
swear to that as well.
Gladly, said Petyr. It is friends I want, not foes. I shall pardon all of you, in writing if you
wish. Even Lyn Corbray. His brother is a good man, there is no need to bring down shame upon
a noble House.
Lady Waynwood turned to her fellow Lords Declarant. My lords, perhaps we might confer?
There is no need. It is plain that he has won. Bronze Yohns grey eyes considered Petyr
Baelish. I like it not, but it would seem you have your year. Best use it well, my lord. Not all of
us are fooled. He opened the door so forcefully that he all but wrenched it off its hinges.
Later there was a feast of sorts, though Petyr was forced to make apologies for the humble fare.
Robert was trotted out in a doublet of cream and blue, and played the little lord quite graciously.
Bronze Yohn was not there to see; he had already departed from the Eyrie to begin the long
descent, as had Ser Lyn Corbray before him. The other lords remained with them till morn.
He bewitched them, Alayne thought as she lay abed that night listening to the wind howl
outside her windows. She could not have said where the suspicion came from, but once it crossed
her mind it would not let her sleep. She tossed and turned, worrying at it like a dog at some old
bone. Finally, she rose and dressed herself, leaving Gretchel to her dreams.
Petyr was still awake, scratching out a letter. Alayne, he said. My sweet. What brings you
here so late?
I had to know. What will happen in a year?
He put down his quill. Redfort and Waynwood are old. One or both of them may die. Gilwood
Hunter will be murdered by his brothers. Most likely by young Harlan, who arranged Lord Eons
death. In for a penny, in for a stag, I always say. Belmore is corrupt and can be bought.
Templeton I shall befriend. Bronze Yohn Royce will continue to be hostile, I fear, but so long as
he stands alone he is not so much a threat.

And Ser Lyn Corbray?
The candlelight was dancing in his eyes. Ser Lyn will remain my implacable enemy. He will
speak of me with scorn and loathing to every man he meets, and lend his sword to every secret
plot to bring me down.
That was when her suspicion turned to certainty. And how shall you reward him for this
service?
Littlefinger laughed aloud. With gold and boys and promises, of course. Ser Lyn is a man of
simple tastes, my sweetling. All he likes is gold and boys and killing.

CERSEI
The king was pouting. I want to sit on the Iron Throne, he told her. You always let
Joff sit up there.
Joffrey was twelve.
But Im the king. The throne belongs to me.
Who told you that? Cersei took a deep breath, so Dorcas could lace her up more tightly. She
was a big girl, much stronger than Senelle, though clumsier as well.
Tommens face turned red. No one told me.
No one? Is that what you call your lady wife? The queen could smell Margaery Tyrell all
over this rebellion. If you lie to me, I will have no choice but to send for Pate and have him
beaten till he bleeds. Pate was Tommens whipping boy, as he had been Joffreys. Is that what
you want?
No, the king muttered sullenly.
Who told you?
He shuffled his feet. Lady Margaery. He knew better than to call her queen in his mothers
hearing.
That is better. Tommen, I have grave matters to decide, matters that you are far too young to
understand. I do not need a silly little boy fidgeting on the throne behind me and distracting me
with childish questions. I suppose Margaery thinks you ought to be at my council meetings too?
Yes, he admitted. She says I have to learn to be king.
When you are older, you can attend as many councils as you wish, Cersei told him. I
promise you, you will soon grow sick of them. Robert used to doze through the sessions. When
he troubled to attend at all. He preferred to hunt and hawk, and leave the tedium to old Lord
Arryn. Do you remember him?
He died of a bellyache.
So he did, poor man. As you are so eager to learn, perhaps you should learn the names of all
the kings of Westeros and the Hands who served them. You may recite them to me on the
morrow.
Yes, Mother, he said meekly.
Thats my good boy. The rule was hers; Cersei did not mean to give it up until Tommen came
of age. I waited, so can he. I waited half my life. She had played the dutiful daughter, the
blushing bride, the pliant wife. She had suffered Roberts drunken groping, Jaimes jealousy,
Renlys mockery, Varys with his titters, Stannis endlessly grinding his teeth. She had contended
with Jon Arryn, Ned Stark, and her vile, treacherous, murderous dwarf brother, all the while
promising herself that one day it would be her turn. If Margaery Tyrell thinks to cheat me of my
hour in the sun, she had bloody well think again.
Still, it was an ill way to break her fast, and Cerseis day did not soon improve. She spent the
rest of the morning with Lord Gyles and his ledger books, listening to him cough about stars and
stags and dragons. After him Lord Waters arrived, to report that the first three dromonds were

nearing completion and beg for more gold to finish them in the splendor they deserved. The
queen was pleased to grant him his request. Moon Boy capered as she took her midday meal with
members of the merchant guilds and listened to them complain about sparrows wandering the
streets and sleeping in the squares. I may need to use the gold cloaks to chase these sparrows
from the city, she was thinking, when Pycelle intruded.
The Grand Maester had been especially querulous in council of late. At the last session he had
complained bitterly about the men that Aurane Waters had chosen to captain her new dromonds.
Waters meant to give the ships to younger men, whilst Pycelle argued for experience, insisting
that the commands should go to those captains who had survived the fires of the Blackwater.
Seasoned men of proven loyalty, he called them. Cersei called them old, and sided with Lord
Waters. The only thing these captains proved was that they know how to swim, shed said.
No mother should outlive her children, and no captain should outlive his ship. Pycelle had
taken the rebuke with ill grace.
He seemed less choleric today, and even managed a sort of tremulous smile. Your Grace, glad
tidings, he announced. Wyman Manderly has done as you commanded, and beheaded Lord
Stanniss onion knight.
We know this for a certainty?
The mans head and hands have been mounted above the walls of White Harbor. Lord Wyman
avows this, and the Freys confirm. They have seen the head there, with an onion in its mouth.
And the hands, one marked by his shortened fingers.
Very good, said Cersei. Send a bird to Manderly and inform him that his son will be
returned forthwith, now that he has demonstrated his loyalty. White Harbor would soon return
to the kings peace, and Roose Bolton and his bastard son were closing in on Moat Cailin from
south and north. Once the Moat was theirs, they would join their strength and clear the ironmen
out of Torrhens Square and Deepwood Motte as well. That should win them the allegiance of
Ned Starks remaining bannermen when the time came to march against Lord Stannis.
To the south, meanwhile, Mace Tyrell had raised a city of tents outside Storms End and had
two dozen mangonels flinging stones against the castles massive walls, thus far to small effect.
Lord Tyrell the warrior, the queen mused. His sigil ought to be a fat man sitting on his arse.
That afternoon the dour Braavosi envoy turned up for his audience. Cersei had put him off for a
fortnight and would have gladly put him off another year, but Lord Gyles claimed he could no
longer deal with the man... though the queen was starting to wonder if Gyles was capable of
doing anything but coughing.
Noho Dimittis, the Braavosi named himself. An irritating name for an irritating man. His voice
was irritating too. Cersei shifted in her seat as he went on, wondering how long she must endure
his hectoring. Behind her loomed the Iron Throne, its barbs and blades throwing twisted shadows
across the floor. Only the king or his Hand could sit upon the throne itself. Cersei sat by its foot,
in a seat of gilded wood piled with crimson cushions.
When the Braavosi paused for breath, she saw her chance. This is more properly a matter for
our lord treasurer.

That answer did not please the noble Noho, it would seem. I have spoken with Lord Gyles six
times. He coughs at me and makes excuses, Your Grace, but the gold is not forthcoming.
Speak to him a seventh time, Cersei suggested pleasantly. The number seven is sacred to our
gods.
It pleases Your Grace to make a jest, I see.
When I make a jest I smile. Do you see me smiling? Do you hear laughter? I assure you, when
I make a jest, men laugh.
King Robert
is dead, she said sharply. The Iron Bank will have its gold when this rebellion has been
put down.
He had the insolence to scowl at her. Your Grace
This audience is at an end. Cersei had suffered quite enough for one day. Ser Meryn, show
the noble Noho Dimittis to the door. Ser Osmund, you may escort me back to my apartments.
Her guests would soon arrive, and she had to bathe and change. Supper promised to be a tedious
affair as well. It was hard work to rule a kingdom, much less seven of them.
Ser Osmund Kettleblack fell in beside her on the steps, tall and lean in his Kingsguard whites.
When Cersei was certain they were quite alone, she slid her arm through his. How is your little
brother faring, pray?
Ser Osmund looked uneasy. Ah... well enough, only...
Only? The queen let a hint of anger edge her words. I must confess, I am running short of
patience with dear Osney. It is past time he broke in that little filly. I named him Tommens
sworn shield so he could spend part of every day in Margaerys company. He should have
plucked the rose by now. Is the little queen blind to his charms?
His charms is fine. Hes a Kettleblack, aint he? Begging your pardon. Ser Osmund ran his
fingers through his oily black hair. Its her thats the trouble.
And why is that? The queen had begun to nurse doubts about Ser Osney. Perhaps another
man would have been more to Margaerys liking. Aurane Waters, with that silvery hair, or a big
strapping fellow like Ser Tallad. Would the maid prefer someone else? Does your brothers face
displease her?
She likes his face. She touched his scars two days ago, he told me. What woman gave you
these? she asked. Osney never said it was a woman, but she knew. Might be someone told her.
Shes always touching him when they talk, he says. Straightening the clasp on his cloak,
brushing back his hair, and like that. One time at the archery butts she had him show her how to
hold a longbow, so he had to put his arms around her. Osney tells her bawdy jests, and she
laughs and comes back with ones that are even bawdier. No, she wants him, thats plain, but...
But? Cersei prompted.
They are never alone. The kings with them most all the time, and when hes not, theres
someone else. Two of her ladies share her bed, different ones every night. Two others bring her
breakfast and help her dress. She prays with her septa, reads with her cousin Elinor, sings with
her cousin Alla, sews with her cousin Megga. When shes not off hawking with Janna Fossoway

and Merry Crane, shes playing come-into-my-castle with that little Bulwer girl. She never goes
riding but she takes a tail, four or five companions and a dozen guards at least. And theres
always men about her, even in the Maidenvault.
Men. That was something. That had possibilities. What men are these, pray tell?
Ser Osmund shrugged. Singers. Shes a fool for singers and jugglers and such. Knights, come
round to moon over her cousins. Ser Tallads the worst, Osney says. That big oaf dont seem to
know if its Elinor or Alla he wants, but he knows he wants her awful bad. The Redwyne twins
come calling too. Slobber brings flowers and fruit, and Horrors taken up the lute. To hear Osney
tell it, you could make a sweeter sound strangling a cat. The Summer Islanders always
underfoot as well.
Jalabhar Xho? Cersei gave a derisive snort. Begging her for gold and swords to win his
homeland back, most like. Beneath his jewels and feathers, Xho was little more than a wellborn
beggar. Robert could have put an end to his importuning for good with one firm No, but the
notion of conquering the Summer Isles had appealed to her drunken lout of a husband. No doubt
he dreamt of brown-skinned wenches naked beneath feathered cloaks, with nipples black as coal.
So instead of No, Robert always told Xho, Next year, though somehow next year never
came.
I couldnt say if he was begging, Your Grace, Ser Osmund answered. Osney says hes
teaching them the Summer Tongue. Not Osney, the queethe filly and her cousins.
A horse that speaks the Summer Tongue would make a great sensation, the queen said dryly.
Tell your brother to keep his spurs well honed. I shall find some way for him to mount his filly
soon, you may rely on that.
Ill tell him, Your Grace. Hes eager for that ride, dont think he aint. Shes a pretty little
thing, that filly.
It is me hes eager for, fool, the queen thought. All he wants of Margaery is the lordship
between her legs. As fond as she was of Osmund, at times he seemed as slow as Robert. I hope
his sword is quicker than his wits. The day may come that Tommen has some need of it.
They were crossing beneath the shadow of the broken Tower of the Hand when the sound of
cheers swept over them. Across the yard, some squire had made a pass at the quintain and sent
the crossarm spinning. The cheers were being led by Margaery Tyrell and her hens. A lot of
uproar for very little. You would think the boy had won a tourney. Then she was startled to see
that it was Tommen on the courser, clad all in gilded plate.
The queen had little choice but to don a smile and go to see her son. She reached him as the
Knight of Flowers was helping him from his horse. The boy was breathless with excitement.
Did you see? he was asking everyone. I did it just the way Ser Loras said. Did you see, Ser
Osney?
I did, said Osney Kettleblack. A pretty sight.
You have a better seat than me, sire, put in Ser Dermot.
I broke the lance too. Ser Loras, did you hear it?

As loud as a crack of thunder. A rose of jade and gold clasped Ser Lorass white cloak at the
shoulder, and the wind was riffling artfully through his brown locks. You rode a splendid
course, but once is not enough. You must do it again upon the morrow. You must ride every day,
until every blow lands true and straight, and your lance is as much a part of you as your arm.
I want to.
You were glorious. Margaery went to one knee, kissed the king upon his cheek, and put an
arm around him. Brother, take care, she warned Loras. My gallant husband will be unhorsing
you in a few more years, I think. Her three cousins all agreed, and the wretched little Bulwer
girl began to hop about, chanting, Tommen will be the champion, the champion, the champion.
When he is a man grown, said Cersei.
Their smiles withered like roses kissed by frost. The pock-faced old septa was the first to bend
her knee. The rest followed, save for the little queen and her brother.
Tommen did not seem to notice the sudden chill in the air. Mother, did you see me? he
burbled happily. I broke my lance on the shield, and the bag never hit me!
I was watching from across the yard. You did very well, Tommen. I would expect no less of
you. Jousting is in your blood. One day you shall rule the lists, as your father did.
No man will stand before him. Margaery Tyrell gave the queen a coy smile. But I never
knew that King Robert was so accomplished at the joust. Pray tell us, Your Grace, what tourneys
did he win? What great knights did he unseat? I know the king should like to hear about his
fathers victories.
A flush crept up Cerseis neck. The girl had caught her out. Robert Baratheon had been an
indifferent jouster, in truth. During tourneys he had much preferred the mle, where he could
beat men bloody with blunted axe or hammer. It had been Jaime she had been thinking of when
she spoke. It is not like me to forget myself. Robert won the tourney of the Trident, she had to
say. He overthrew Prince Rhaegar and named me his queen of love and beauty. I am surprised
you do not know that story, good-daughter. She gave Margaery no time to frame a reply. Ser
Osmund, help my son from his armor, if you would be so good. Ser Loras, walk with me. I need
a word with you.
The Knight of Flowers had no recourse but to follow at her heels like the puppy he was. Cersei
waited until they were on the serpentine steps before she said, Whose notion was that, pray?
My sisters, he admitted. Ser Tallad, Ser Dermot, and Ser Portifer were riding at the
quintain, and the queen suggested that His Grace might like to have a turn.
He calls her that to irk me. And your part?
I helped His Grace to don his armor and showed him how to couch his lance, he answered.
That horse was much too large for him. What if he had fallen off? What if the sandbag had
smashed his head in?
Bruises and bloody lips are all part of being a knight.
I begin to understand why your brother is a cripple. That wiped the smile off his pretty face,
she was pleased to see. Perhaps my brother failed to explain your duties to you, ser. You are

here to protect my son from his enemies. Training him for knighthood is the province of the
master-at-arms.
The Red Keep has had no master-at-arms since Aron Santagar was slain, Ser Loras said, with
a hint of reproach in his voice. His Grace is almost nine, and eager to learn. At his age he
should be a squire. Someone has to teach him.
Someone will, but it will not be you. Pray, who did you squire for, ser? she asked sweetly.
Lord Renly, was it not?
I had that honor.
Yes, I thought as much. Cersei had seen how tight the bonds grew between squires and the
knights they served. She did not want Tommen growing close to Loras Tyrell. The Knight of
Flowers was no sort of man for any boy to emulate. I have been remiss. With a realm to rule, a
war to fight, and a father to mourn, somehow I overlooked the crucial matter of naming a new
master-at-arms. I shall rectify that error at once.
Ser Loras pushed back a brown curl that had fallen across his forehead. Your Grace will not
find any man half so skilled with sword and lance as I.
Humble, arent we? Tommen is your king, not your squire. You are to fight for him and die for
him, if need be. No more.
She left him on the drawbridge that spanned the dry moat with its bed of iron spikes and entered
Maegors Holdfast alone. Where am I to find a master-at-arms? she wondered as she climbed to
her apartments. Having refused Ser Loras, she dare not turn to any of the Kingsguard knights;
that would be salt in the wound, certain to anger Highgarden. Ser Tallad? Ser Dermot? There
must be someone. Tommen was growing fond of his new sworn shield, but Osney was proving
himself less capable than she had hoped in the matter of Maid Margaery, and she had a different
office in mind for his brother Osfryd. It was rather a pity that the Hound had gone rabid.
Tommen had always been frightened of Sandor Cleganes harsh voice and burned face, and
Cleganes scorn would have been the perfect antidote to Loras Tyrells simpering chivalry.
Aron Santagar was Dornish, Cersei recalled. I could send to Dorne. Centuries of blood and war
lay between Sunspear and Highgarden. Yes, a Dornishman might suit my needs admirably.
There must be some good swords in Dorne.
When she entered her solar, Cersei found Lord Qyburn reading in a window seat. If it please
Your Grace, I have reports.
More plots and treasons? Cersei asked. I have had a long and tiring day. Tell me quickly.
He smiled sympathetically. As you wish. There is talk that the Archon of Tyrosh has offered
terms to Lys, to end their present trade war. It had been rumored that Myr was about to enter the
war on the Tyroshi side, but without the Golden Company the Myrish did not believe they...
What the Myrish believe does not concern me. The Free Cities were always fighting one
another. Their endless betrayals and alliances meant little and less to Westeros. Do you have
any news of more import?
The slave revolt in Astapor has spread to Meereen, it would seem. Sailors off a dozen ships
speak of dragons...

Harpies. It is harpies in Meereen. She remembered that from somewhere. Meereen was at the
far end of the world, out east beyond Valyria. Let the slaves revolt. Why should I care? We
keep no slaves in Westeros. Is that all you have for me?
There is some news from Dorne that Your Grace may find of more interest. Prince Doran has
imprisoned Ser Daemon Sand, a bastard who once squired for the Red Viper.
I recall him. Ser Daemon had been amongst the Dornish knights who had accompanied
Prince Oberyn to Kings Landing. What did he do?
He demanded that Prince Oberyns daughters be set free.
More fool him.
Also, Lord Qyburn said, the daughter of the Knight of Spottswood was betrothed quite
unexpectedly to Lord Estermont, our friends in Dorne inform us. She was sent to Greenstone that
very night, and it is said she and Estermont have already wed.
A bastard in the belly would explain that. Cersei toyed with a lock of her hair. How old is
the blushing bride?
Three-and-twenty, Your Grace. Whereas Lord Estermont
must be seventy. I am aware of that. The Estermonts were her good-kin through Robert,
whose father had taken one of them to wife in what must have been a fit of lust or madness. By
the time Cersei wed the king, Roberts lady mother was long dead, though both of her brothers
had turned up for the wedding and stayed for half a year. Robert had later insisted on returning
the courtesy with a visit to Estermont, a mountainous little island off Cape Wrath. The dank and
dismal fortnight Cersei spent at Greenstone, the seat of House Estermont, was the longest of her
young life. Jaime dubbed the castle Greenshit at first sight, and soon had Cersei doing it too.
Elsewise she passed her days watching her royal husband hawk, hunt, and drink with his uncles,
and bludgeon various male cousins senseless in Greenshits yard.
There had been a female cousin too, a chunky little widow with breasts as big as melons whose
husband and father had both died at Storms End during the siege. Her father was good to me,
Robert told her, and she and I would play together when the two of us were small. It did not
take him long to start playing with her again. As soon as Cersei closed her eyes, the king would
steal off to console the poor lonely creature. One night she had Jaime follow him, to confirm her
suspicions. When her brother returned he asked her if she wanted Robert dead. No, she had
replied, I want him horned. She liked to think that was the night when Joffrey was conceived.
Eldon Estermont has taken a wife fifty years his junior, she said to Qyburn. Why should that
concern me?
He shrugged. I do not say it should... but Daemon Sand and this Santagar girl were both close
to Prince Dorans own daughter, Arianne, or so the Dornishmen would have us believe. Perhaps
it means little or less, but I thought Your Grace should know.
Now I do. She was losing patience. Do you have more?
One more thing. A trifling matter. He gave her an apologetic smile and told her of a puppet
show that had recently become popular amongst the citys smallfolk; a puppet show wherein the
kingdom of the beasts was ruled by a pride of haughty lions. The puppet lions grow greedy and

arrogant as this treasonous tale proceeds, until they begin to devour their own subjects. When the
noble stag makes objection, the lions devour him as well, and roar that it is their right as the
mightiest of beasts.
And is that the end of it? Cersei asked, amused. Looked at in the right light, it could be seen
as a salutary lesson.
No, Your Grace. At the end a dragon hatches from an egg and devours all of the lions.
The ending took the puppet show from simple insolence to treason. Witless fools. Only cretins
would hazard their heads upon a wooden dragon. She considered a moment. Send some of
your whisperers to these shows and make note of who attends. If any of them should be men of
note, I would know their names.
What will be done with them, if I may be so bold?
Any men of substance shall be fined. Half their worth should be sufficient to teach them a
sharp lesson and refill our coffers, without quite ruining them. Those too poor to pay can lose an
eye, for watching treason. For the puppeteers, the axe.
There are four. Perhaps Your Grace might allow me two of them for mine own purposes. A
woman would be especially...
I gave you Senelle, the queen said sharply.
Alas. The poor girl is quite... exhausted.
Cersei did not like to think about that. The girl had come with her unsuspecting, thinking she
was along to serve and pour. Even when Qyburn clapped the chain around her wrist, she had not
seemed to understand. The memory still made the queen queasy. The cells were bitter cold. Even
the torches shivered. And that foul thing screaming in the darkness... Yes, you may take a
woman. Two, if it please you. But first I will have names.
As you command. Qyburn withdrew.
Outside, the sun was setting. Dorcas had prepared a bath for her. The queen was soaking
pleasantly in the warm water and contemplating what she would say to her supper guests when
Jaime came bursting through the door and ordered Jocelyn and Dorcas from the room. Her
brother looked rather less than immaculate and had a smell of horse about him. He had Tommen
with him too. Sweet sister, he said, the king requires a word.
Cerseis golden tresses floated in the bathwater. The room was steamy. A drop of sweat trickled
down her cheek. Tommen? she said, in a dangerously soft voice. What is it now?
The boy knew that tone. He shrank back.
His Grace wants his white courser on the morrow, Jaime said. For his jousting lesson.
She sat up in the tub. There will be no jousting.
Yes, there will. Tommen puffed out his lower lip. I have to ride every day.
And you shall, the queen declared, once we have a proper master-at-arms to supervise your
training.
I dont want a proper master-at-arms. I want Ser Loras.
You make too much of that boy. Your little wife has filled your head with foolish notions of
his prowess, I know, but Osmund Kettleblack is thrice the knight that Loras is.

Jaime laughed. Not the Osmund Kettleblack I know.
She could have throttled him. Perhaps I need to command Ser Loras to allow Ser Osmund to
unhorse him. That might chase the stars from Tommens eyes. Salt a slug and shame a hero, and
they shrink right up. I am sending for a Dornishman to train you, she said. The Dornish are
the finest jousters in the realm.
They are not, said Tommen. Anyway, I dont want any stupid Dornishman, I want Ser
Loras. I command it.
Jaime laughed. He is no help at all. Does he think this is amusing? The queen slapped the water
angrily. Must I send for Pate? You do not command me. I am your mother.
Yes, but Im the king. Margaery says that everyone has to do what the king says. I want my
white courser saddled on the morrow so Ser Loras can teach me how to joust. I want a kitten too,
and I dont want to eat beets. He crossed his arms.
Jaime was still laughing. The queen ignored him. Tommen, come here. When he hung back,
she sighed. Are you afraid? A king should not show fear. The boy approached the tub, his eyes
downcast. She reached out and stroked his golden curls. King or no, you are a little boy. Until
you come of age, the rule is mine. You will learn to joust, I promise you. But not from Loras.
The knights of the Kingsguard have more important duties than playing with a child. Ask the
Lord Commander. Isnt that so, ser?
Very important duties. Jaime smiled thinly. Riding round the city walls, for an instance.
Tommen looked close to tears. Can I still have a kitten?
Perhaps, the queen allowed. So long as I hear no more nonsense about jousting. Can you
promise me that?
He shuffled his feet. Yes.
Good. Now run along. My guests will be here shortly.
Tommen ran along, but before he left he turned back to say, When Im king in my own right,
Im going to outlaw beets.
Her brother shoved the door shut with his stump. Your Grace, he said, when he and Cersei
were alone, I was wondering. Are you drunk, or merely stupid?
She slapped the water once again, sending up another splash to wash across his feet. Guard
your tongue, or
or what? Will you send me to inspect the city walls again? He sat and crossed his legs.
Your bloody walls are fine. Ive crawled over every inch of them and had a look at all seven of
the gates. The hinges on the Iron Gate are rusted, and the Kings Gate and Mud Gate need to be
replaced after the pounding Stannis gave them with his rams. The walls are as strong as they
have ever been... but perchance Your Grace has forgotten that our friends of Highgarden are
inside the walls?
I forget nothing, she told him, thinking of a certain gold coin, with a hand on one face and the
head of a forgotten king on the other. How did some miserable wretch of a gaoler come to have
such a coin hidden beneath his chamber pot? How does a man like Rugen come to have old gold
from Highgarden?

This is the first I have heard of a new master-at-arms. Youll need to look long and hard to
find a better jouster than Loras Tyrell. Ser Loras is
I know what he is. I wont have him near my son. You had best remind him of his duties. Her
bath was growing cool.
He knows his duties, and theres no better lance
You were better, before you lost your hand. Ser Barristan, when he was young. Arthur Dayne
was better, and Prince Rhaegar was a match for even him. Do not prate at me about how fierce
the Flower is. Hes just a boy. She was tired of Jaime balking her. No one had ever balked her
lord father. When Tywin Lannister spoke, men obeyed. When Cersei spoke, they felt free to
counsel her, to contradict her, even refuse her. It is all because I am a woman. Because I cannot
fight them with a sword. They gave Robert more respect than they give me, and Robert was a
witless sot. She would not suffer it, especially not from Jaime. I need to rid myself of him, and
soon. Once upon a time she had dreamt that the two of them might rule the Seven Kingdoms side
by side, but Jaime had become more of a hindrance than a help.
Cersei rose from the bath. Water ran down her legs and trickled from her hair. When I want
your counsel I will ask for it. Leave me, ser. I must needs dress.
Your supper guests, I know. What plot is this, now? There are so many I lose track. His
glance fell to the water beading in the golden hair between her legs.
He still wants me. Pining for what youve lost, brother?
Jaime raised his eyes. I love you too, sweet sister. But youre a fool. A beautiful golden fool.
The words stung. You called me kinder words at Greenstone, the night you planted Joff inside
me, Cersei thought. Get out. She turned her back to him and listened to him leave, fumbling at
the door with his stump.
Whilst Jocelyn was making certain that all was in readiness for the supper, Dorcas helped the
queen into her new gown. It had stripes of shiny green satin alternating with stripes of plush
black velvet, and intricate black Myrish lace above the bodice. Myrish lace was costly, but it was
necessary for a queen to look her best at all times, and her wretched washerwomen had shrunk
several of her old gowns so they no longer fit. She would have whipped them for their
carelessness, but Taena had urged her to be merciful. The smallfolk will love you more if you
are kind, she had said, so Cersei had ordered the value of the gowns deducted from the
womens wages, a much more elegant solution.
Dorcas put a silver looking glass into her hand. Very good, the queen thought, smiling at her
reflection. It was pleasant to be out of mourning. Black made her look too pale. A pity I am not
supping with Lady Merryweather, the queen reflected. It had been a long day, and Taenas wit
always cheered her. Cersei had not had a friend she so enjoyed since Melara Hetherspoon, and
Melara had turned out to be a greedy little schemer with ideas above her station. I should not
think ill of her. Shes dead and drowned, and she taught me never to trust anyone but Jaime.
By the time she joined them in the solar, her guests had made a good start on the hippocras.
Lady Falyse not only looks like a fish, she drinks like one, she reflected, when she made note of
the half-empty flagon. Sweet Falyse, she exclaimed, kissing the womans cheek, and brave

Ser Balman. I was so distraught when I heard about your dear, dear mother. How fares our Lady
Tanda?
Lady Falyse looked as if she were about to cry. Your Grace is good to ask. Mothers hip was
shattered by the fall, Maester Frenken says. He did what he could. Now we pray, but...
Pray all you like, she will still be dead before the moon turns. Women as old as Tanda
Stokeworth did not survive a broken hip. I shall add my prayers to your own, said Cersei.
Lord Qyburn tells me that Tanda was thrown from her horse.
Her saddle girth burst whilst she was riding, said Ser Balman Byrch. The stableboy should
have seen the strap was worn. He has been chastised.
Severely, I hope. The queen seated herself and indicated that her guests should sit as well.
Will you have another cup of hippocras, Falyse? You were always fond of it, I seem to recall.
It is so good of you to remember, Your Grace.
How could I have forgotten? Cersei thought. Jaime said it was a wonder you did not piss the
stuff. How was your journey?
Uncomfortable, complained Falyse. It rained most of the day. We thought to spend the night
at Rosby, but that young ward of Lord Gyles refused us hospitality. She sniffed. Mark my
word, when Gyles dies that ill-born wretch will make off with his gold. He may even try and
claim the lands and lordship, though by rights Rosby should come to us when Gyles passes. My
lady mother was aunt to his second wife, third cousin to Gyles himself.
Is your sigil a lamb, my lady, or some sort of grasping monkey? Cersei thought. Lord Gyles
has been threatening to die for as long as I have known him, but he is still with us, and will be for
many years, I do hope. She smiled pleasantly. No doubt he will cough the whole lot of us into
our graves.
Like as not, Ser Balman agreed. Rosbys ward was not the only one to vex us, Your Grace.
We encountered ruffians on the road as well. Filthy, unkempt creatures, with leather shields and
axes. Some had stars sewn on their jerkins, sacred stars of seven points, but they had an evil look
about them all the same.
They were lice-ridden, I am certain, added Falyse.
They call themselves sparrows, said Cersei. A plague upon the land. Our new High Septon
will need to deal with them, once he is crowned. If not, I shall deal with them myself.
Has His High Holiness been chosen yet? asked Falyse.
No, the queen had to confess. Septon Ollidor was on the verge of being chosen, until some
of these sparrows followed him to a brothel and dragged him naked out into the street. Luceon
seems the likely choice now, though our friends on the other hill say that he is still a few votes
short of the required number.
May the Crone guide the deliberations with her golden lamp of wisdom, said Lady Falyse,
most piously.
Ser Balman shifted in his seat. Your Grace, an awkward matter, but... lest bad feeling fester
between us, you should know that neither my good wife nor her mother had any hand in the

naming of this bastard child. Lollys is a simple creature, and her husband is given to black
humors. I told him to choose a more fitting name for the boy. He laughed.
The queen sipped her wine and studied him. Ser Balman had been a noted jouster once, and one
of the handsomest knights in the Seven Kingdoms. He could still boast a handsome mustache;
elsewise, he had not aged well. His wavy blond hair had retreated, whilst his belly advanced
inexorably against his doublet. As a catspaw he leaves much to be desired, she reflected. Still, he
should serve. Tyrion was a kings name before the dragons came. The Imp has despoiled it, but
perhaps this child can restore the name to honor. If the bastard lives so long. I know you are
not to blame. Lady Tanda is the sister that I never had, and you... Her voice broke. Forgive me.
I live in fear.
Falyse opened and closed her mouth, which made her look like some especially stupid fish.
In... in fear, Your Grace?
I have not slept a whole night through since Joffrey died. Cersei filled the goblets with
hippocras. My friends... you are my friends, I hope? And King Tommens?
That sweet lad, Ser Balman declared. Your Grace, the very words of House Stokeworth are
Proud to Be Faithful.
Would that there were more like you, good ser. I tell you truly, I have grave doubts about Ser
Bronn of the Blackwater.
Husband and wife exchanged a look. The man is insolent, Your Grace, Falyse said. Uncouth
and foul-mouthed.
He is no true knight, Ser Balman said.
No. Cersei smiled, all for him. And you are a man who would know true knighthood. I
remember watching you joust in... which tourney was it where you fought so brilliantly, ser?
He smiled modestly. That affair at Duskendale six years ago? No, you were not there, else you
would surely have been crowned the queen of love and beauty. Was it the tourney at Lannisport
after Greyjoys Rebellion? I unhorsed many a good knight in that one...
That was the one. Her face grew somber. The Imp vanished the night my father died,
leaving two honest gaolers behind in pools of blood. Some claim he fled across the narrow sea,
but I wonder. The dwarf is cunning. Perhaps he still lurks near, planning more murders. Perhaps
some friend is hiding him.
Bronn? Ser Balman stroked his bushy mustache.
He was ever the Imps creature. Only the Stranger knows how many men hes sent to hell at
Tyrions behest.
Your Grace, I think I should have noticed a dwarf skulking about our lands, said Ser Balman.
My brother is small. He was made for skulking. Cersei let her hand shake. A childs name is
a small thing... but insolence unpunished breeds rebellion. And this man Bronn has been
gathering sellswords to him, Qyburn has told me.
He has taken four knights into his household, said Falyse.
Ser Balman snorted. My good wife flatters them, to call them knights. Theyre upjumped
sellswords, with not a thimble of chivalry to be found amongst the four of them.

As I feared. Bronn is gathering swords for the dwarf. May the Seven save my little son. The
Imp will kill him as he killed his brother. She sobbed. My friends, I put my honor in your
hands... but what is a queens honor against a mothers fears?
Say on, Your Grace, Ser Balman assured her. Your words shall neer leave this room.
Cersei reached across the table and gave his hand a squeeze. I... I would sleep more easily of a
night if I were to hear that Ser Bronn had suffered a... a mishap... whilst hunting, perhaps.
Ser Balman considered a moment. A mortal mishap?
No, I desire you to break his little toe. She had to bite her lip. My enemies are everywhere and
my friends are fools. I beg you, ser, she whispered, do not make me say it...
I understand. Ser Balman raised a finger.
A turnip would have grasped it quicker. You are a true knight indeed, ser. The answer to a
frightened mothers prayers. Cersei kissed him. Do it quickly, if you would. Bronn has only a
few men about him now, but if we do not act, he will surely gather more. She kissed Falyse. I
shall never forget this, my friends. My true friends of Stokeworth. Proud to Be Faithful. You
have my word, we shall find Lollys a better husband when this is done. A Kettleblack, perhaps.
We Lannisters pay our debts.
The rest was hippocras and buttered beets, hot-baked bread, herb-crusted pike, and ribs of wild
boar. Cersei had become very fond of boar since Roberts death. She did not even mind the
company, though Falyse simpered and Balman preened from soup to sweet. It was past midnight
before she could rid herself of them. Ser Balman proved a great one for suggesting yet another
flagon, and the queen did not think it prudent to refuse. I could have hired a Faceless Man to kill
Bronn for half of what Ive spent on hippocras, she reflected when they were gone at last.
At that hour, her son was fast asleep, but Cersei looked in upon him before seeking her own
bed. She was surprised to find three black kittens cuddled up beside him. Where did those come
from? she asked Ser Meryn Trant, outside the royal bedchamber.
The little queen gave them to him. She only meant to give him one, but he couldnt decide
which one he liked the best.
Better than cutting them out of their mother with a dagger, I suppose. Margaerys clumsy
attempts at seduction were so obvious as to be laughable. Tommen is too young for kisses, so she
gives him kittens. Cersei rather wished they were not black, though. Black cats brought ill luck,
as Rhaegars little girl had discovered in this very castle. She would have been my daughter, if
the Mad King had not played his cruel jape on Father. It had to have been the madness that led
Aerys to refuse Lord Tywins daughter and take his son instead, whilst marrying his own son to a
feeble Dornish princess with black eyes and a flat chest.
The memory of the rejection still rankled, even after all these years. Many a night she had
watched Prince Rhaegar in the hall, playing his silver-stringed harp with those long, elegant
fingers of his. Had any man ever been so beautiful? He was more than a man, though. His blood
was the blood of old Valyria, the blood of dragons and gods. When she was just a little girl, her
father had promised her that she would marry Rhaegar. She could not have been more than six or
seven. Never speak of it, child, he had told her, smiling his secret smile that only Cersei ever

saw. Not until His Grace agrees to the betrothal. It must remain our secret for now. And so it
had, though once she had drawn a picture of herself flying behind Rhaegar on a dragon, her arms
wrapped tight about his chest. When Jaime had discovered it she told him it was Queen Alysanne
and King Jaehaerys.
She was ten when she finally saw her prince in the flesh, at the tourney her lord father had
thrown to welcome King Aerys to the west. Viewing stands had been raised beneath the walls of
Lannisport, and the cheers of the smallfolk had echoed off Casterly Rock like rolling thunder.
They cheered Father twice as loudly as they cheered the king, the queen recalled, but only half as
loudly as they cheered Prince Rhaegar.
Seventeen and new to knighthood, Rhaegar Targaryen had worn black plate over golden
ringmail when he cantered onto the lists. Long streamers of red and gold and orange silk had
floated behind his helm, like flames. Two of her uncles fell before his lance, along with a dozen
of her fathers finest jousters, the flower of the west. By night the prince played his silver harp
and made her weep. When she had been presented to him, Cersei had almost drowned in the
depths of his sad purple eyes. He has been wounded, she recalled thinking, but I will mend his
hurt when we are wed. Next to Rhaegar, even her beautiful Jaime had seemed no more than a
callow boy. The prince is going to be my husband, she had thought, giddy with excitement, and
when the old king dies Ill be the queen. Her aunt had confided that truth to her before the
tourney. You must be especially beautiful, Lady Genna told her, fussing with her dress, for at
the final feast it shall be announced that you and Prince Rhaegar are betrothed.
Cersei had been so happy that day. Elsewise she would never have dared visit the tent of Maggy
the Frog. She had only done it to show Jeyne and Melara that the lioness fears nothing. I was
going to be a queen. Why should a queen be afraid of some hideous old woman? The memory of
that foretelling still made her flesh crawl a lifetime later. Jeyne ran shrieking from the tent in
fear, the queen remembered, but Melara stayed and so did I. We let her taste our blood, and
laughed at her stupid prophecies. None of them made the least bit of sense. She was going to be
Prince Rhaegars wife, no matter what the woman said. Her father had promised it, and Tywin
Lannisters word was gold.
Her laughter died at tourneys end. There had been no final feast, no toasts to celebrate her
betrothal to Prince Rhaegar. Only cold silences and chilly looks between the king and her father.
Later, when Aerys and his son and all his gallant knights had departed for Kings Landing, the
girl had gone to her aunt in tears, not understanding. Your father proposed the match, Lady
Genna told her, but Aerys refused to hear of it. You are my most able servant, Tywin, the king
said, but a man does not marry his heir to his servants daughter. Dry those tears, little one.
Have you ever seen a lion weep? Your father will find another man for you, a better man than
Rhaegar.
Her aunt had lied, though, and her father had failed her, just as Jaime was failing her now.
Father found no better man. Instead he gave me Robert, and Maggys curse bloomed like some
poisonous flower. If she had only married Rhaegar as the gods intended, he would never have

looked twice at the wolf girl. Rhaegar would be our king today and I would be his queen, the
mother of his sons.
She had never forgiven Robert for killing him.
But then, lions were not good at forgiving. As Ser Bronn of the Blackwater would shortly learn.

BRIENNE
It was Hyle Hunt who insisted that they take the heads. Tarly will want them for the
walls, he said.
We have no tar, Brienne pointed out. The flesh will rot. Leave them. She did not want to
travel through the green gloom of the piney woods with the heads of the men shed killed.
Hunt would not listen. He hacked through the dead mens necks himself, tied the three heads
together by the hair, and slung them from his saddle. Brienne had no choice but to try and
pretend they were not there, but sometimes, especially at night, she could feel their dead eyes on
her back, and once she dreamed she heard them whispering to one another.
It was cold and wet on Crackclaw Point as they retraced their steps. Some days it rained and
some days it threatened rain. They were never warm. Even when they made camp, it was hard to
find enough dry wood for a fire.
By the time they reached the gates of Maidenpool, a host of flies attended them, a crow had
eaten Shagwells eyes, and Pyg and Timeon were crawling with maggots. Brienne and Podrick
had long since taken to riding a hundred yards ahead, to keep the smell of rot well behind them.
Ser Hyle claimed to have lost all sense of smell by then. Bury them, she told him every time
they made camp for a night, but Hunt was nothing if not stubborn. He will most like tell Lord
Randyll that he slew all three of them.
To his honor, though, the knight did nothing of the sort.
The stammering squire threw a rock, he said, when he and Brienne were ushered into Tarlys
presence in the yard of Mootons castle. The heads had been presented to a serjeant of the guard,
who was told to have them cleaned and tarred and mounted above the gate. The swordswench
did the rest.
All three? Lord Randyll was incredulous.
The way she fought, she could have killed three more.
And did you find the Stark girl? Tarly demanded of her.
No, my lord.
Instead you slew some rats. Did you enjoy it?
No, my lord.
A pity. Well, youve had your taste of blood. Proved whatever it is you meant to prove. Its
time you took off that mail and donned proper clothes again. There are ships in port. Ones
bound to stop at Tarth. Ill have you on it.
Thank you, my lord, but no.
Lord Tarlys face suggested he would have liked nothing better than to stick her own head on a
spike and mount it above the gates of Maidenpool with Timeon, Pyg, and Shagwell. You mean
to continue with this folly?
I mean to find the Lady Sansa.
If it please my lord, Ser Hyle said, I watched her fight the Mummers. She is stronger than
most men, and quick

The sword is quick, Tarly snapped. That is the nature of Valyrian steel. Stronger than most
men? Aye. Shes a freak of nature, far be it from me to deny it.
His sort will never love me, Brienne thought, no matter what I do. My lord, it may be that
Sandor Clegane has some knowledge of the girl. If I could find him...
Cleganes turned outlaw. He rides with Beric Dondarrion now, it would seem. Or not, the tales
vary. Show me where theyre hiding, I will gladly slit their bellies open, pull their entrails out,
and burn them. Weve hanged dozens of outlaws, but the leaders still elude us. Clegane,
Dondarrion, the red priest, and now this woman Stoneheart... how do you propose to find them,
when I cannot?
My lord, I... She had no good answer for him. All I can do is try.
Try, then. You have your letter, you do not need my leave, but Ill give it nonetheless. If
youre fortunate, all youll get for your trouble are saddle sores. If not, perhaps Clegane will let
you live after he and his pack are done raping you. You can crawl back to Tarth with some dogs
bastard in your belly.
Brienne ignored that. If it please my lord, how many men ride with the Hound?
Six or sixty or six hundred. It would seem to depend on whom we ask. Randyll Tarly had
plainly had enough of the conversation. He started to turn away.
If my squire and I might beg your hospitality until
Beg all you want. I will not suffer you beneath my roof.
Ser Hyle Hunt stepped forward. If it please my lord, I had understood that it was still Lord
Mootons roof.
Tarly gave the knight a venomous look. Mooton has the courage of a worm. You will not
speak to me of Mooton. As for you, my lady, it is said that your father is a good man. If so, I pity
him. Some men are blessed with sons, some with daughters. No man deserves to be cursed with
such as you. Live or die, Lady Brienne, do not return to Maidenpool whilst I rule here.
Words are wind, Brienne told herself. They cannot hurt you. Let them wash over you. As you
command, my lord, she tried to say, but Tarly had gone before she got it out. She walked from
the yard like one asleep, not knowing where she was going.
Ser Hyle fell in beside her. There are inns.
She shook her head. She did not want words with Hyle Hunt.
Do you recall the Stinking Goose?
Her cloak still smelled of it. Why?
Meet me there on the morrow, at midday. My cousin Alyn was one of those sent out to find
the Hound. Ill speak with him.
Why would you do that?
Why not? If you succeed where Alyn failed, I shall be able to taunt him with that for years.
There were still inns in Maidenpool; Ser Hyle had not been wrong. Some had burned during
one sack or the other, however, and had yet to be rebuilt, and those that remained were full to
bursting with men from Lord Tarlys host. She and Podrick visited all of them that afternoon, but
there were no beds to be had anywhere.

Ser? My lady? Podrick said as the sun was going down. There are ships. Ships have beds.
Hammocks. Or bunks.
Lord Randylls men still prowled the docks, as thick as the flies had been on the heads of the
three Bloody Mummers, but their serjeant knew Brienne by sight and let her pass. The local
fisherfolk were tying up for the night and crying the days catch, but her interest was in the larger
ships that plied the stormy waters of the narrow sea. Half a dozen were in port, though one, a
galleas called the Titans Daughter, was casting off her lines to ride out on the evening tide. She
and Podrick Payne made the rounds of the ships that remained. The master of the Gulltown Girl
took Brienne for a whore and told them that his ship was not a bawdy house, and a harpooner on
the Ibbenese whaler offered to buy her boy, but they had better fortune elsewhere. She purchased
Podrick an orange on the Seastrider, a cog just in from Oldtown by way of Tyrosh, Pentos, and
Duskendale. Gulltown next, her captain told her, thence around the Fingers to Sisterton and
White Harbor, if the storms allow. Shes a clean ship, Strider, not so many rats as most, and
well have fresh eggs and new-churned butter aboard. Is mlady seeking passage north?
No. Not yet. She was tempted, but...
As they were making their way to the next pier, Podrick shuffled his feet, and said, Ser? My
lady? What if my lady did go home? My other lady, I mean. Ser. Lady Sansa.
They burned her home.
Still. Thats where her gods are. And gods cant die.
Gods cannot die, but girls can. Timeon was a cruel man and a murderer, but I do not think he
lied about the Hound. We cannot go north until we know for certain. There will be other ships.
At the east end of the harbor they finally found shelter for the night, aboard a storm-wracked
trading galley called the Lady of Myr. She was listing badly, having lost her mast and half her
crew in a storm, but her master did not have the coin he needed to refit her, so he was glad to
take a few pennies from Brienne and allow her and Pod to share an empty cabin.
They had a restless night. Thrice Brienne woke. Once when the rain began, and once at a creak
that made her think Nimble Dick was creeping in to kill her. The second time, she woke with
knife in hand, but it was nothing. In the darkness of the cramped little cabin, it took her a
moment to remember that Nimble Dick was dead. When she finally drifted back to sleep, she
dreamed about the men shed killed. They danced around her, mocking her, pinching at her as
she slashed at them with her sword. She cut them all to bloody ribbons, yet still they swarmed
around her... Shagwell, Timeon, and Pyg, aye, but Randyll Tarly too, and Vargo Hoat, and Red
Ronnet Connington. Ronnet had a rose between his fingers. When he held it out to her, she cut
his hand off.
She woke sweating, and spent the rest of the night huddled under her cloak, listening to rain
pound against the deck over her head. It was a wild night. From time to time she heard the sound
of distant thunder, and thought of the Braavosi ship that had sailed upon the evening tide.
The next morning she found the Stinking Goose again, woke its slatternly proprietor, and paid
her for some greasy sausages, fried bread, half a cup of wine, a flagon of boiled water, and two

clean cups. The woman squinted at Brienne as she was putting the water on to boil. Youre the
big one went off with Nimble Dick. I remember. He cheat you?
No.
Rape you?
No.
Steal your horse?
No. He was slain by outlaws.
Outlaws? The woman seemed more curious than upset. I always figured Dick would hang,
or get sent off to that Wall.
They ate the fried bread and half the sausages. Podrick Payne washed his down with wine-
flavored water whilst Brienne nursed a cup of watered wine and wondered why shed come.
Hyle Hunt was no true knight. His honest face was just a mummers mask. I do not need his
help, I do not need his protection, and I do not need him, she told herself. He is probably not
even coming. Telling me to meet him here was just another jape.
She was getting up to go when Ser Hyle arrived. My lady. Podrick. He glanced at the cups
and plates and the half-eaten sausages cooling in a puddle of grease, and said, Gods, I hope you
did not eat the food here.
What we ate is no concern of yours, Brienne said. Did you find your cousin? What did he
tell you?
Sandor Clegane was last seen in Saltpans, the day of the raid. Afterward he rode west, along
the Trident.
She frowned. The Trident is a long river.
Aye, but I dont think our dog will have wandered too far from its mouth. Westeros has lost its
charm for him, it would seem. At Saltpans he was looking for a ship. Ser Hyle drew a roll of
sheepskin from his boot, pushed the sausages aside, and unrolled it. It proved to be a map. The
Hound butchered three of his brothers men at the old inn by the crossroads, here. He led the raid
on Saltpans, here. He tapped Saltpans with his finger. He may be trapped. The Freys are up
here at the Twins, Darry and Harrenhal are south across the Trident, west hes got the
Blackwoods and the Brackens fighting, and Lord Randylls here at Maidenpool. The high road to
the Vale is closed by snow, even if he could get past the mountain clans. Wheres a dog to go?
If he is with Dondarrion... ?
Hes not. Alyn is certain of that. Dondarrions men are looking for him too. They have put out
word that they mean to hang him for what he did at Saltpans. They had no part of that. Lord
Randyll is putting it about that they did in hopes of turning the commons against Beric and his
brotherhood. He will never take the lightning lord so long as the smallfolk are protecting him.
And theres this other band, led by this woman Stoneheart... Lord Berics lover, according to one
tale. Supposedly she was hanged by the Freys, but Dondarrion kissed her and brought her back to
life, and now she cannot die, no more than he can. Brienne considered the map. If Clegane was
last seen at Saltpans, that would be the place to find his trail.
There is no one left at Saltpans but an old knight hiding in his castle, Alyn said.

Still, it would be a place to start.
Theres a man, Ser Hyle said. A septon. He came in through my gate the day before you
turned up. Meribald, his name is. River-born and river-bred and hes served here all his life. Hes
departing on the morrow to make his circuit, and he always calls at Saltpans. We should go with
him.
Brienne looked up sharply. We?
I am going with you.
Youre not.
Well, Im going with Septon Meribald to Saltpans. You and Podrick can go wherever you
bloody well like.
Did Lord Randyll command you to follow me again?
He commanded me to stay away from you. Lord Randyll is of the view that you might benefit
from a good hard raping.
Then why would you come with me?
It was that, or return to gate duty.
If your lord commanded
He is no longer my lord.
That took her aback. You left his service?
His lordship informed me that he had no further need of my sword, or my insolence. It
amounts to the same thing. Henceforth I shall enjoy the adventuresome life of a hedge knight...
though if we do find Sansa Stark, I imagine we will be well rewarded.
Gold and land, thats what he sees in this. I mean to save the girl, not sell her. I swore a vow.
I dont recall that I did.
That is why you will not be coming with me.
They left the next morning, as the sun was coming up.
It was a queer procession: Ser Hyle on a chestnut courser and Brienne on her tall grey mare,
Podrick Payne astride his swayback stot, and Septon Meribald walking beside them with his
quarterstaff, leading a small donkey and a large dog. The donkey carried such a heavy load that
Brienne was half afraid its back would break. Food for the poor and hungry of the riverlands,
Septon Meribald told them at the gates of Maidenpool. Seeds and nuts and dried fruit, oaten
porridge, flour, barley bread, three wheels of yellow cheese from the inn by the Fools Gate, salt
cod for me, salt mutton for Dog... oh, and salt. Onions, carrots, turnips, two sacks of beans, four
of barley, and nine of oranges. I have a weakness for the orange, I confess. I got these from a
sailor, and I fear they will be the last Ill taste till spring.
Meribald was a septon without a sept, only one step up from a begging brother in the hierarchy
of the Faith. There were hundreds like him, a ragged band whose humble task it was to trudge
from one flyspeck of a village to the next, conducting holy services, performing marriages, and
forgiving sins. Those he visited were expected to feed and shelter him, but most were as poor as
he was, so Meribald could not linger in one place too long without causing hardship to his hosts.
Kindly innkeeps would sometimes allow him to sleep in their kitchens or their stables, and there

were septries and holdfasts and even a few castles where he knew he would be given hospitality.
Where no such places were at hand, he slept beneath the trees or under hedges. There are many
fine hedges in the riverlands, Meribald said. The old ones are the best. Theres nothing beats a
hundred-year-old hedge. Inside one of those a man can sleep as snug as at an inn, and with less
fear of fleas.
The septon could neither read nor write, as he cheerfully confessed along the road, but he knew
a hundred different prayers and could recite long passages from The Seven-Pointed Star from
memory, which was all that was required in the villages. He had a seamed, windburnt face, a
shock of thick grey hair, wrinkles at the corners of his eyes. Though a big man, six feet tall, he
had a way of hunching forward as he walked that made him seem much shorter. His hands were
large and leathery, with red knuckles and dirt beneath the nails, and he had the biggest feet that
Brienne had ever seen, bare and black and hard as horn.
I have not worn a shoe in twenty years, he told Brienne. The first year, I had more blisters
than I had toes, and my soles would bleed like pigs whenever I trod on a hard stone, but I prayed
and the Cobbler Above turned my skin to leather.
There is no cobbler above, Podrick protested.
There is, lad... though you may call him by another name. Tell me, which of the seven gods do
you love best?
The Warrior, said Podrick without a moments hesitation.
Brienne cleared her throat. At Evenfall my fathers septon always said that there was but one
god.
One god with seven aspects. Thats so, my lady, and you are right to point it out, but the
mystery of the Seven Who Are One is not easy for simple folk to grasp, and I am nothing if not
simple, so I speak of seven gods. Meribald turned back to Podrick. I have never known a boy
who did not love the Warrior. I am old, though, and being old, I love the Smith. Without his
labor, what would the Warrior defend? Every town has a smith, and every castle. They make the
plows we need to plant our crops, the nails we use to build our ships, iron shoes to save the
hooves of our faithful horses, the bright swords of our lords. No one could doubt the value of a
smith, and so we name one of the Seven in his honor, but we might as easily have called him the
Farmer or the Fisherman, the Carpenter or the Cobbler. What he works at makes no matter. What
matters is, he works. The Father rules, the Warrior fights, the Smith labors, and together they
perform all that is rightful for a man. Just as the Smith is one aspect of the godhead, the Cobbler
is one aspect of the Smith. It was he who heard my prayer and healed my feet.
The gods are good, Ser Hyle said in a dry voice, but why trouble them, when you might just
have kept your shoes?
Going barefoot was my penance. Even holy septons can be sinners, and my flesh was weak as
weak could be. I was young and full of sap, and the girls... a septon can seem as gallant as a
prince if he is the only man you know who has ever been more than a mile from your village. I
would recite to them from The Seven-Pointed Star. The Maidens Book worked best. Oh, I was a

wicked man, before I threw away my shoes. It shames me to think of all the maidens I
deflowered.
Brienne shifted in the saddle uncomfortably, thinking back to the camp below the walls of
Highgarden and the wager Ser Hyle and the others had made to see who could bed her first.
Were looking for a maiden, confided Podrick Payne. A highborn girl of three-and-ten, with
auburn hair.
I had understood that you were seeking outlaws.
Them too, Podrick admitted.
Most travelers do all they can to avoid such men, said Septon Meribald, yet you would seek
them out.
We only seek one outlaw, Brienne said. The Hound.
So Ser Hyle told me. May the Seven save you, child. Its said he leaves a trail of butchered
babes and ravished maids behind him. The Mad Dog of Saltpans, I have heard him called. What
would good folk want with such a creature?
The maid that Podrick spoke of may be with him.
Truly? Then we must pray for the poor girl.
And for me, thought Brienne, a prayer for me as well. Ask the Crone to raise her lamp and lead
me to the Lady Sansa, and the Warrior to give strength to my arm so that I might defend her. She
did not say the words aloud, though; not where Hyle Hunt might hear her and mock her for her
womans weakness.
With Septon Meribald afoot and his donkey bearing such a heavy load, the going was slow all
that day. They did not take the main road west, the road that Brienne had once ridden with Ser
Jaime when they came the other way to find Maidenpool sacked and full of corpses. Instead they
struck off toward the northwest, following the shore of the Bay of Crabs on a crooked track so
small that it did not appear on either of Ser Hyles precious sheepskin maps. The steep hills,
black bogs, and piney woods of Crackclaw Point were nowhere to be found this side of
Maidenpool. The lands they traveled through were low and wet, a wilderness of sandy dunes and
salt marshes beneath a vast blue-grey vault of sky. The road was prone to vanishing amongst the
reeds and tidal pools, only to appear again a mile farther on; without Meribald, Brienne knew,
they surely would have lost their way. The ground was often soft, so in places the septon would
walk ahead, tapping with his quarterstaff to make certain of the footing. There were no trees for
leagues around, just sea and sky and sand.
No land could have been more different from Tarth, with its mountains and waterfalls, its high
meadows and shadowed vales, yet this place had its own beauty, Brienne thought. They crossed
a dozen slow-flowing streams alive with frogs and crickets, watched terns floating high above
the bay, heard the sandpipers calling from amongst the dunes. Once a fox crossed their path, and
set Meribalds dog to barking wildly.
And there were people too. Some lived amongst the reeds in houses built of mud and straw,
whilst others fished the bay in leather coracles and built their homes on rickety wooden stilts
above the dunes. Most seemed to live alone, out of sight of any human habitation but their own.

They seemed a shy folk for the most part, but near midday the dog began to bark again, and three
women emerged from the reeds to give Meribald a woven basket full of clams. He gave each of
them an orange in return, though clams were as common as mud in this world, and oranges were
rare and costly. One of the women was very old, one was heavy with child, and one was a girl as
fresh and pretty as a flower in spring. When Meribald took them off to hear their sins, Ser Hyle
chuckled, and said, It would seem the gods walk with us... at least the Maiden, the Mother, and
the Crone. Podrick looked so astonished that Brienne had to tell him no, they were only three
marsh women.
Afterward, when they resumed their journey, she turned to the septon, and said, These people
live less than a days ride from Maidenpool, and yet the fighting has not touched them.
They have little to touch, my lady. Their treasures are shells and stones and leather boats, their
finest weapons knives of rusted iron. They are born, they live, they love, they die. They know
Lord Mooton rules their lands, but few have ever seen him, and Riverrun and Kings Landing are
only names to them.
And yet they know the gods, said Brienne. That is your work, I think. How long have you
walked the riverlands?
It will be forty years soon, the septon said, and his dog gave a loud bark. From Maidenpool
to Maidenpool, my circuit takes me half a year and ofttimes more, but I will not say I know the
Trident. I glimpse the castles of the great lords only at a distance, but I know the market towns
and holdfasts, the villages too small to have a name, the hedges and the hills, the rills where a
thirsty man can drink and the caves where he can shelter. And the roads the smallfolk use, the
crooked muddy tracks that do not appear on parchment maps, I know them too. He chuckled. I
should. My feet have trod every mile of them, ten times over.
The back roads are the ones the outlaws use, and the caves would make fine places for hunted
men to hide. A prickle of suspicion made Brienne wonder just how well Ser Hyle knew this man.
It must make for a lonely life, septon.
The Seven are always with me, said Meribald, and I have my faithful servant, and Dog.
Does your dog have a name? asked Podrick Payne.
He must, said Meribald, but he is not my dog. Not him.
The dog barked and wagged his tail. He was a huge, shaggy creature, ten stone of dog at least,
but friendly.
Who does he belong to? asked Podrick.
Why, to himself, and to the Seven. As to his name, he has not told me what it is. I call him
Dog.
Oh. Podrick did not know what to make of a dog named Dog, plainly. The boy chewed on
that a while, then said, I used to have a dog when I was little. I called him Hero.
Was he?
Was he what?
A hero.
No. He was a good dog, though. He died.

Dog keeps me safe upon the roads, even in such trying times as these. Neither wolf nor outlaw
dare molest me when Dog is at my side. The septon frowned. The wolves have grown terrible
of late. There are places where a man alone would do well to find a tree to sleep in. In all my
years the biggest pack I ever saw had fewer than a dozen wolves in it, but the great pack that
prowls along the Trident now numbers in the hundreds.
Have you come on them yourself? Ser Hyle asked.
I have been spared that, Seven save me, but I have heard them in the night, and more than
once. So many voices... a sound to curdle a mans blood. It even set Dog to shivering, and Dog
has killed a dozen wolves. He ruffled the dogs head. Some will tell you that they are demons.
They say the pack is led by a monstrous she-wolf, a stalking shadow grim and grey and huge.
They will tell you that she has been known to bring aurochs down all by herself, that no trap nor
snare can hold her, that she fears neither steel nor fire, slays any wolf that tries to mount her, and
devours no other flesh but man.
Ser Hyle Hunt laughed. Now youve done it, septon. Poor Podricks eyes are big as boiled
eggs.
Theyre not, said Podrick, indignant. Dog barked.
That night they made a cold camp in the dunes. Brienne sent Podrick walking by the shore to
find some driftwood for a fire, but he came back empty-handed, with mud up to his knees. The
tides out, ser. My lady. Theres no water, only mudflats.
Stay off the mud, child, counseled Septon Meribald. The mud is not fond of strangers. If you
walk in the wrong place, it will open up and swallow you.
Its only mud, insisted Podrick.
Until it fills your mouth and starts creeping up your nose. Then its death. He smiled to take
the chill off his words. Wipe off that mud and have a slice of orange, lad.
The next day was more of the same. They broke their fast on salt cod and more orange slices,
and were on their way before the sun was wholly risen, with a pink sky behind them and a purple
sky ahead. Dog led the way, sniffing at every clump of reeds and stopping every now and then to
piss on one; he seemed to know the road as well as Meribald. The cries of terns shivered through
the morning air as the tide came rushing in.
Near midday they stopped at a tiny village, the first they had encountered, where eight of the
stilt-houses loomed above a small stream. The men were out fishing in their coracles, but the
women and young boys clambered down dangling rope ladders and gathered around Septon
Meribald to pray. After the service he absolved their sins and left them with some turnips, a sack
of beans, and two of his precious oranges.
Back on the road, the septon said, We would do well to keep a watch tonight, my friends. The
villagers say theyve seen three broken men skulking round the dunes, west of the old
watchtower.
Only three? Ser Hyle smiled. Three is honey to our swordswench. Theyre not like to
trouble armed men.

Unless theyre starving, the septon said. There is food in these marshes, but only for those
with the eyes to find it, and these men are strangers here, survivors from some battle. If they
should accost us, ser, I beg you, leave them to me.
What will you do with them?
Feed them. Ask them to confess their sins, so that I might forgive them. Invite them to come
with us to the Quiet Isle.
Thats as good as inviting them to slit our throats as we sleep, Hyle Hunt replied. Lord
Randyll has better ways to deal with broken mensteel and hempen rope.
Ser? My lady? said Podrick. Is a broken man an outlaw?
More or less, Brienne answered.
Septon Meribald disagreed. More less than more. There are many sorts of outlaws, just as
there are many sorts of birds. A sandpiper and a sea eagle both have wings, but they are not the
same. The singers love to sing of good men forced to go outside the law to fight some wicked
lord, but most outlaws are more like this ravening Hound than they are the lightning lord. They
are evil men, driven by greed, soured by malice, despising the gods and caring only for
themselves. Broken men are more deserving of our pity, though they may be just as dangerous.
Almost all are common-born, simple folk who had never been more than a mile from the house
where they were born until the day some lord came round to take them off to war. Poorly shod
and poorly clad, they march away beneath his banners, ofttimes with no better arms than a sickle
or a sharpened hoe, or a maul they made themselves by lashing a stone to a stick with strips of
hide. Brothers march with brothers, sons with fathers, friends with friends. Theyve heard the
songs and stories, so they go off with eager hearts, dreaming of the wonders they will see, of the
wealth and glory they will win. War seems a fine adventure, the greatest most of them will ever
know.
Then they get a taste of battle.
For some, that one taste is enough to break them. Others go on for years, until they lose count
of all the battles they have fought in, but even a man who has survived a hundred fights can
break in his hundred-and-first. Brothers watch their brothers die, fathers lose their sons, friends
see their friends trying to hold their entrails in after theyve been gutted by an axe.
They see the lord who led them there cut down, and some other lord shouts that they are his
now. They take a wound, and when thats still half-healed they take another. There is never
enough to eat, their shoes fall to pieces from the marching, their clothes are torn and rotting, and
half of them are shitting in their breeches from drinking bad water.
If they want new boots or a warmer cloak or maybe a rusted iron halfhelm, they need to take
them from a corpse, and before long they are stealing from the living too, from the smallfolk
whose lands theyre fighting in, men very like the men they used to be. They slaughter their
sheep and steal their chickens, and from there its just a short step to carrying off their daughters
too. And one day they look around and realize all their friends and kin are gone, that they are
fighting beside strangers beneath a banner that they hardly recognize. They dont know where
they are or how to get back home and the lord theyre fighting for does not know their names, yet

here he comes, shouting for them to form up, to make a line with their spears and scythes and
sharpened hoes, to stand their ground. And the knights come down on them, faceless men clad
all in steel, and the iron thunder of their charge seems to fill the world...
And the man breaks.
He turns and runs, or crawls off afterward over the corpses of the slain, or steals away in the
black of night, and he finds someplace to hide. All thought of home is gone by then, and kings
and lords and gods mean less to him than a haunch of spoiled meat that will let him live another
day, or a skin of bad wine that might drown his fear for a few hours. The broken man lives from
day to day, from meal to meal, more beast than man. Lady Brienne is not wrong. In times like
these, the traveler must beware of broken men, and fear them... but he should pity them as well.
When Meribald was finished a profound silence fell upon their little band. Brienne could hear
the wind rustling through a clump of pussywillows, and farther off the faint cry of a loon. She
could hear Dog panting softly as he loped along beside the septon and his donkey, tongue lolling
from his mouth. The quiet stretched and stretched, until finally she said, How old were you
when they marched you off to war?
Why, no older than your boy, Meribald replied. Too young for such, in truth, but my
brothers were all going, and I would not be left behind. Willam said I could be his squire, though
Will was no knight, only a potboy armed with a kitchen knife hed stolen from the inn. He died
upon the Stepstones, and never struck a blow. It was fever did for him, and for my brother Robin.
Owen died from a mace that split his head apart, and his friend Jon Pox was hanged for rape.
The War of the Ninepenny Kings? asked Hyle Hunt.
So they called it, though I never saw a king, nor earned a penny. It was a war, though. That it
was.

SAMWELL
Sam stood before the window, rocking nervously as he watched the last light of the sun
vanish behind a row of sharp-peaked rooftops. He must have gotten drunk again, he thought
glumly. Or else hes met another girl. He did not know whether to curse or weep. Dareon was
supposed to be his brother. Ask him to sing, and no one could be better. Ask him to do aught
else...
The mists of evening had begun to rise, sending grey fingers up the walls of the buildings that
lined the old canal. He promised hed be back, Sam said. You heard him too.
Gilly looked at him with eyes red-rimmed and puffy. Her hair hung about her face, unwashed
and tangled. She looked like some wary animal peering through a bush. It had been days since
theyd last had a fire, yet the wildling girl liked to huddle near the hearth, as if the cold ashes still
held some lingering warmth. He doesnt like it here with us, she said, whispering so as not to
wake the babe. Its sad here. He likes it where the wine is, and the smiles.
Yes, thought Sam, and the wine is everywhere but here. Braavos was full of inns, alehouses,
and brothels. And if Dareon preferred a fire and a cup of mulled wine to stale bread and the
company of a weeping woman, a fat craven, and a sick old man, who could blame him? I could
blame him. He said he would be back before the gloaming; he said he would bring us wine and
food.
He looked out the window once more, hoping against hope to see the singer hurrying home.
Darkness was falling across the secret city, creeping through the alleys and down the canals. The
good folk of Braavos would soon be shuttering their windows and sliding bars across their doors.
Night belonged to the bravos and the courtesans. Dareons new friends, Sam thought bitterly.
They were all the singer could talk about of late. He was trying to write a song about one
courtesan, a woman called the Moonshadow who had heard him singing beside the Moon Pool
and rewarded him with a kiss. You should have asked her for silver, Sam had said. Its coin
we need, not kisses. But the singer only smiled. Some kisses are worth more than yellow gold,
Slayer.
That made him angry too. Dareon was not supposed to be making up songs about courtesans.
He was supposed to be singing about the Wall and the valor of the Nights Watch. Jon had hoped
that perhaps his songs might persuade a few young men to take the black. Instead he sang of
golden kisses, silvery hair, and red, red lips. No one ever took the black for red, red lips.
Sometimes his playing would wake the babe too. Then the child would begin to wail, Dareon
would shout at him to be quiet, Gilly would weep, and the singer would storm out and not return
for days. All that weeping makes me want to slap her, he complained, and I can scarce sleep
for her sobbing.
You would weep as well if you had a son and lost him, Sam almost said. He could not blame
Gilly for her grief. Instead, he blamed Jon Snow and wondered when Jons heart had turned to
stone. Once he asked Maester Aemon that very question, when Gilly was down at the canal

fetching water for them. When you raised him up to be the lord commander, the old man
answered.
Even now, rotting here in this cold room beneath the eaves, part of Sam did not want to believe
that Jon had done what Maester Aemon thought. It must be true, though. Why else would Gilly
weep so much? All he had to do was ask her whose child she was nursing at her breast, but he
did not have the courage. He was afraid of the answer he might get. I am still a craven, Jon. No
matter where he went in this wide world, his fears went with him.
A hollow rumbling echoed off the roofs of Braavos, like the sound of distant thunder; the Titan,
sounding nightfall from across the lagoon. The noise was loud enough to wake the babe, and his
sudden wail woke Maester Aemon. As Gilly went to give the boy the breast, the old mans eyes
opened, and he stirred feebly in his narrow bed. Egg? Its dark. Why is it so dark?
Because youre blind. Aemons wits were wandering more and more since they arrived at
Braavos. Some days he did not seem to know where he was. Some days he would lose his way
when saying something and begin to ramble on about his father or his brother. He is one hundred
and two, Sam reminded himself, but he had been just as old at Castle Black and his wits had
never wandered there.
Its me, he had to say. Samwell Tarly. Your steward.
Sam. Maester Aemon licked his lips, and blinked. Yes. And this is Braavos. Forgive me,
Sam. Is morning come?
No. Sam felt the old mans brow. His skin was damp with sweat, cool and clammy to the
touch, his every breath a soft wheeze. Its night, maester. Youve been asleep.
Too long. Its cold in here.
We have no wood, Sam told him, and the innkeep will not give us more unless we have the
coin. It was the fourth or fifth time theyd had this same conversation. I should have used our
coin for wood, Sam chided himself every time. I should have had the sense to keep him warm.
Instead he had squandered the last of their silver on a healer from the House of the Red Hands,
a tall pale man in robes embroidered with swirling stripes of red and white. All that the silver
bought him was half a flask of dreamwine. This may help gentle his passing, the Braavosi had
said, not unkindly. When Sam asked if there wasnt any more that he could do, he shook his
head. Ointments I have, potions and infusions, tinctures and venoms and poultices. I might
bleed him, purge him, leech him... but why? No leech can make him young again. This is an old
man, and death is in his lungs. Give him this and let him sleep.
And so he had, all night and all day, but now the old man was struggling to sit. We must go
down to the ships.
The ships again. Youre too weak to go out, he had to say. A chill had gotten inside Maester
Aemon during the voyage and settled in his chest. By the time they got to Braavos, he had been
so weak theyd had to carry him ashore. Theyd still had a fat bag of silver then, so Dareon had
asked for the inns biggest bed. The one theyd gotten was large enough to sleep eight, so the
innkeep insisted on charging them for that many.

On the morrow we can go to the docks, Sam promised. You can ask about and find which
ship is departing next for Oldtown. Even in autumn, Braavos was still a busy port. Once Aemon
was strong enough to travel, they should have no trouble finding a suitable vessel to take them
where they had to go. Paying for their passage would prove more difficult. A ship from the
Seven Kingdoms would be their best hope. A trader out of Oldtown, maybe, with kin in the
Nights Watch. There must still be some who honor the men who walk the Wall.
Oldtown, Maester Aemon wheezed. Yes. I dreamt of Oldtown, Sam. I was young again and
my brother Egg was with me, with that big knight he served. We were drinking in the old inn
where they make the fearsomely strong cider. He tried to rise again, but the effort proved too
much for him. After a moment he settled back. The ships, he said again. We will find our
answer there. About the dragons. I need to know.
No, thought Sam, its food and warmth you need, a full belly and a hot fire crackling in the
hearth. Are you hungry, maester? We have some bread left, and a bit of cheese.
Not just now, Sam. Later, when Im feeling stronger.
How will you get stronger unless you eat? None of them had eaten much at sea, not after
Skagos. The autumn gales had hounded them all across the narrow sea. Sometimes they came up
from the south, roiling with thunder and lightning and black rains that fell for days. Sometimes
they came down from the north, cold and grim, with savage winds that cut right through a man.
Once it got so cold that Sam had woken to find the whole ship coated in ice, shining as white as
pearl. The captain had taken down their mast and tied it to the deck, to finish the crossing on oars
alone. No one had been eating by the time they saw the Titan.
Once safe ashore, though, Sam had found himself ravenously hungry. It was the same for
Dareon and Gilly. Even the babe had begun to suck more lustily. Aemon, though...
The breads gone stale, but I can beg some gravy from the kitchens to soak it in, Sam told the
old man. The innkeep was a hard man, cold-eyed and suspicious of these black-clad strangers
beneath his roof, but his cook was kinder.
No. Perhaps a sip of wine, though?
They had no wine. Dareon had promised to buy some with the coin from his singing. Well
have wine later, Sam had to say. Theres water, but its not the good water. The good water
came over the arches of the great brick aqueduct the Braavosi called the sweetwater river. Rich
men had it piped into their homes; the poor filled their pails and buckets at public fountains. Sam
had sent Gilly out to get some, forgetting that the wildling girl had lived her whole life in sight of
Crasters Keep and never seen so much as a market town. The stony maze of islands and canals
that was Braavos, devoid of grass and trees and teeming with strangers who spoke to her in
words she could not understand, frightened her so badly that she lost the map and soon herself.
Sam found her weeping at the stony feet of some long-dead sealord. All we have is canal
water, he told Maester Aemon, but the cook gave it a boil. Theres dreamwine too, if you need
more of that.
I have dreamt enough for now. Canal water will suffice. Help me, if you would.

Sam eased the old man up and held the cup to his dry, cracked lips. Even so, half the water
dribbled down the maesters chest. Enough, Aemon coughed, after a few sips. Youll drown
me. He shivered in Sams arms. Why is the room so cold?
Theres no more wood. Dareon had paid the innkeep double for a room with a hearth, but
none of them had realized that wood would be so costly here. Trees did not grow on Braavos,
save in the courts and gardens of the mighty. Nor would the Braavosi cut the pines that covered
the outlying islands around their great lagoon and acted as windbreaks to shield them from
storms. Instead, firewood was brought in by barge, up the rivers and across the lagoon. Even
dung was dear here; the Braavosi used boats in place of horses. None of that would have
mattered if they had departed as planned for Oldtown, but that had proved impossible with
Maester Aemon so weak. Another voyage on the open sea would kill him.
Aemons hand crept across the blankets, groping for Sams arm. We must go to the docks,
Sam.
When you are stronger. The old man was in no state to brave the salt spray and wet winds
along the waterfront, and Braavos was all waterfront. To the north was the Purple Harbor, where
Braavosi traders tied up beneath the domes and towers of the Sealords Palace. To the west lay
the Ragmans Harbor, crowded with ships from the other Free Cities, from Westeros and Ibben
and the fabled, far-off lands of the east. And everywhere else were little piers and ferry berths
and old grey wharves where shrimpers and crabbers and fisherfolk moored after working the
mudflats and river mouths. It would be too great a strain on you.
Then go in my stead, Aemon urged, and bring me someone who has seen these dragons.
Me? Sam was dismayed by the suggestion. Maester, it was only a story. A sailors story.
Dareon was to blame for this as well. The singer had been bringing back all manner of queer
tales from the alehouses and brothels. Unfortunately, he had been in his cups when he heard the
one about the dragons and could not recall the details. Dareon may have made up the whole
story. Singers do that. They make things up.
They do, said Maester Aemon, but even the most fanciful song may hold a kernel of truth.
Find that truth for me, Sam.
I wouldnt know who to ask, or how to ask him. I only have a little High Valyrian, and when
they speak to me in Braavosi I cannot understand half of what theyre saying. You speak more
tongues than I do, once you are stronger you can...
When will I be stronger, Sam? Tell me that.
Soon. If you rest and eat. When we reach Oldtown...
I shall not see Oldtown again. I know that now. The old man tightened his grip on Sams arm.
I will be with my brothers soon. Some were bound to me by vows and some by blood, but they
were all my brothers. And my father... he never thought the throne would pass to him, and yet it
did. He used to say that was his punishment for the blow that slew his brother. I pray he found
the peace in death that he never knew in life. The septons sing of sweet surcease, of laying down
our burdens and voyaging to a far sweet land where we may laugh and love and feast until the

end of days... but what if there is no land of light and honey, only cold and dark and pain beyond
the wall called death?
He is afraid, Sam realized. You are not dying. Youre ill, thats all. It will pass.
Not this time, Sam. I dreamed... in the black of night a man asks all the questions he dare not
ask by daylight. For me, these past years, only one question has remained. Why would the gods
take my eyes and my strength, yet condemn me to linger on so long, frozen and forgotten? What
use could they have for an old done man like me? Aemons fingers trembled, twigs sheathed in
spotted skin. I remember, Sam. I still remember.
He was not making sense. Remember what?
Dragons, Aemon whispered. The grief and glory of my House, they were.
The last dragon died before you were born, said Sam. How could you remember them?
I see them in my dreams, Sam. I see a red star bleeding in the sky. I still remember red. I see
their shadows on the snow, hear the crack of leathern wings, feel their hot breath. My brothers
dreamed of dragons too, and the dreams killed them, every one. Sam, we tremble on the cusp of
half-remembered prophecies, of wonders and terrors that no man now living could hope to
comprehend... or...
Or? said Sam.
... or not. Aemon chuckled softly. Or I am an old man, feverish and dying. He closed his
white eyes wearily, then forced them open once again. I should not have left the Wall. Lord
Snow could not have known, but I should have seen it. Fire consumes, but cold preserves. The
Wall... but it is too late to go running back. The Stranger waits outside my door and will not be
denied. Steward, you have served me faithfully. Do this one last brave thing for me. Go down to
the ships, Sam. Learn all you can about these dragons.
Sam eased his arm out of the old mans grasp. I will. If you want. I only... He did not know
what else to say. I cannot refuse him. He could look for Dareon as well, along the docks and
wharves of the Ragmans Harbor. I will find Dareon first, and well go to the ships together. And
when we come back, well bring food and wine and wood. Well have a fire and a good hot
meal. He rose. Well. I should go, then. If I am going. Gilly will be here. Gilly, bar the door
when I am gone. The Stranger waits outside the door.
Gilly nodded, cradling the babe against her breast, her eyes welling full of tears. She is going to
weep again, Sam realized. It was more than he could take. His swordbelt hung from a peg on the
wall, beside the old cracked horn that Jon had given him. He ripped it down and buckled it about
him, then swept his black wool cloak about his rounded shoulders, slumped through the door,
and clattered down a wooden stair whose steps creaked beneath his weight. The inn had two
front doors, one opening on a street and one on a canal. Sam went out through the former, to
avoid the common room where the innkeep was sure to give him the sour eye that he reserved for
guests who had overstayed their welcome.
There was a chill in the air, but the night was not half so foggy as some. Sam was grateful for
that much. Sometimes the mists covered the ground so thick that a man could not see his own
feet. Once he had come within a step of walking into a canal.

As a boy Sam had read a history of Braavos and dreamed of one day coming here. He wanted to
behold the Titan rising stern and fearsome from the sea, glide down the canals in a serpent boat
past all the palaces and temples, and watch the bravos do their water dance, blades flashing in the
starlight. But now that he was here, all he wanted was to leave and go to Oldtown.
With his hood up and his cloak flapping, he made his way along the cobblestones toward the
Ragmans Harbor. His swordbelt kept threatening to fall down about his ankles, so he had to
keep tugging it back up as he went. He stayed to the smaller, darker streets, where he was less
likely to encounter anyone, yet every passing cat still made his heart thump... and Braavos
crawled with cats. I need to find Dareon, he thought. He is a man of the Nights Watch, my
Sworn Brother; he and I will puzzle out what to do. Maester Aemons strength was gone, and
Gilly would have been lost here even if she had not been grief-stricken, but Dareon... I should
not think ill of him. He could be hurt, perhaps that is why he did not come back. He could be
dead, lying in some alley in a pool of blood, or floating facedown in one of the canals. At night
the bravos swaggered through the city in their parti-colored finery, spoiling to prove their skill
with those slender swords they wore. Some would fight for any cause, some for none at all, and
Dareon had a loose tongue and quick temper, especially when hed been drinking. Just because a
man can sing about battles doesnt mean hes fit to fight one.
The best alehouses, inns, and brothels were near the Purple Harbor or the Moon Pool, but
Dareon preferred the Ragmans Harbor, where the patrons were more apt to speak the Common
Tongue. Sam began his search at the Inn of the Green Eel, the Black Bargeman, and Moroggos,
places where Dareon had played before. He was not to be found at any of them. Outside the
Foghouse several serpent boats were tied up awaiting patrons, and Sam tried to ask the polemen
if they had seen a singer all in black, but none of the polemen understood his High Valyrian.
That, or they do not chose to understand. Sam peered into the dingy winesink beneath the second
arch of Nabbos Bridge, barely large enough to accommodate ten people. Dareon was not one of
them. He tried the Outcast Inn, the House of Seven Lamps, and the brothel called the Cattery,
where he got strange looks but no help.
Leaving, he almost bumped into two young men beneath the Catterys red lantern. One was
dark and one was fair. The dark-haired one said something in Braavosi. I am sorry, Sam had to
say. I do not understand. He edged away from them, afraid. In the Seven Kingdoms nobles
draped themselves in velvets, silks, and samites of a hundred hues whilst peasants and smallfolk
wore raw wool and dull brown roughspun. In Braavos it was otherwise. The bravos swaggered
about like peacocks, fingering their swords, whilst the mighty dressed in charcoal grey and
purple, blues that were almost black and blacks as dark as a moonless night.
My friend Terro says you are so fat you make him sick, said the fair-haired bravo, whose
jacket was green velvet on one side and cloth-of-silver on the other. My friend Terro says that
the rattle of your sword makes his head ache. He was speaking in the Common Tongue. The
other one, the dark-haired bravo in the burgundy brocade and yellow cloak whose name would
appear to have been Terro, made some comment in Braavosi, and his fair-haired friend laughed,

and said, My friend Terro says you dress above your station. Are you some great lord, to wear
the black?
Sam wanted to run, but if he did was like to trip over his own swordbelt. Do not touch your
sword, he told himself. Even a finger on the hilt might be enough for one or the other of the
bravos to take as a challenge. He tried to think of words that might appease them. Im not
was all he managed.
He is not a lord, a childs voice put in. Hes in the Nights Watch, stupid. From Westeros.
A girl edged into the light, pushing a barrow full of seaweed; a scruffy, skinny creature in big
boots, with ragged unwashed hair. Theres another one down at the Happy Port, singing songs
to the Sailors Wife, she informed the two bravos. To Sam she said, If they ask who is the most
beautiful woman in the world, say the Nightingale or else theyll challenge you. Do you want to
buy some clams? I sold all my oysters.
I have no coin, Sam said.
He has no coin, mocked the fair-haired bravo. His dark-haired friend grinned and said
something in Braavosi. My friend Terro is chilly. Be our good fat friend and give him your
cloak.
Dont do that either, said the barrow girl, or else theyll ask for your boots next, and before
long youll be naked.
Little cats who howl too loud get drowned in the canals, warned the fair-haired bravo.
Not if they have claws. And suddenly there was a knife in the girls left hand, a blade as
skinny as she was. The one called Terro said something to his fair-haired friend and the two of
them moved off, chuckling at one another.
Thank you, Sam told the girl when they were gone.
Her knife vanished. If you wear a sword at night it means you can be challenged. Did you
want to fight them?
No. It came out in a squeak that made Sam wince.
Are you truly in the Nights Watch? I never saw a black brother like you before. The girl
gestured at the barrow. You can have the last clams if you want. Its dark, no one will buy them
now. Are you sailing to the Wall?
To Oldtown. Sam took one of the baked clams and wolfed it down. Were between ships.
The clam was good. He ate another.
The bravos never bother anyone without a sword. Not even stupid camel cunts like Terro and
Orbelo.
Who are you?
No one. She stank of fish. I used to be someone, but now Im not. You can call me Cat, if
you like. Who are you?
Samwell, of House Tarly. You speak the Common Tongue.
My father was the oarmaster on Nymeria. A bravo killed him for saying that my mother was
more beautiful than the Nightingale. Not one of those camel cunts you met, a real bravo.
Someday Ill slit his throat. The captain said Nymeria had no need of little girls, so he put me off.

Brusco took me in and gave me a barrow. She looked up at him. What ship will you be sailing
on?
We bought passage on the Lady Ushanora.
The girl squinted at him suspiciously. Shes gone. Dont you know? She left days and days
ago.
I know, Sam might have said. He and Dareon had stood on the dock watching the rise and fall
of her oars as she beat for the Titan and the open sea. Well, the singer said, thats done. If
Sam had been a braver man, he would have shoved him into the water. When it came to talking
girls out of their clothes Dareon had a honeyed tongue, yet in the captains cabin somehow Sam
had done all the talking, trying to persuade the Braavosi to wait for them. Three days I have
waited for this old man, the captain had said. My holds are full, and my men have fucked their
wives farewell. With you or without, my Lady leaves on the tide.
Please, Sam had pleaded. Just a few more days, thats all I ask. So Maester Aemon can
recover his strength.
He has no strength. The captain had visited the inn the night before to see Maester Aemon for
himself. He is old and ill and I will not have him dying on my Lady. Stay with him or leave
him, it matters not to me. I sail. Even worse, he had refused to return the passage money they
had paid him, the silver that was meant to see them safe to Oldtown. You bought my finest
cabin. It is there, awaiting you. If you do not choose to occupy it, that is no fault of mine. Why
should I bear the loss?
By now we might be at Duskendale, Sam thought mournfully. We might even have reached
Pentos, if the winds were kind.
But none of that would matter to the barrow girl. You said you saw a singer...
At the Happy Port. Hes going to wed the Sailors Wife.
Wed?
She only beds the ones who marry her.
Where is this Happy Port?
Across from the Mummers Ship. I can show you the way.
I know the way. Sam had seen the Mummers Ship. Dareon cannot wed! He said the words!
I have to go.
He ran. It was a long way over slick cobbles. Before long he was puffing, his big black cloak
flapping noisily behind him. He had to keep one hand on his swordbelt as he ran. What few
people he encountered gave him curious looks, and once a cat reared up and hissed at him. By
the time he reached the ship he was staggering. The Happy Port was just across the alley.
No sooner had he entered, flushed and out of breath, than a one-eyed woman threw her arms
around his neck. Dont, Sam told her, Im not here for that. She answered in Braavosi. I do
not speak that tongue, Sam said in High Valyrian. There were candles burning and a fire
crackling in the hearth. Someone was sawing on a fiddle, and he saw two girls dancing around a
red priest, holding hands. The one-eyed woman pressed her breasts against his chest. Dont do
that! Im not here for that!

Sam! Dareons familiar voice rang out. Yna, let him go, thats Sam the Slayer. My Sworn
Brother!
The one-eyed woman peeled away, though she kept one hand on his arm. One of the dancers
called out, He can slay me if he likes, and the other said, Do you think hed let me touch his
sword? Behind them a purple galleas had been painted on the wall, crewed by women clad in
thigh-high boots and nothing else. A Tyroshi sailor was passed out in a corner, snoring into his
huge scarlet beard. Elsewhere an older woman with huge breasts was turning tiles with a massive
Summer Islander in black-and-scarlet feathers. In the center of it all sat Dareon, nuzzling at the
neck of the woman in his lap. She was wearing his black cloak.
Slayer, the singer called out drunkenly, come meet my lady wife. His hair was sand and
honey, his smile warm. I sang her love songs. Women melt like butter when I sing. How could I
resist this face? He kissed her nose. Wife, give Slayer a kiss, hes my brother. When the girl
got to her feet, Sam saw that she was naked underneath the cloak. Dont go fondling my wife
now, Slayer, said Dareon, laughing. But if you want one of her sisters, you feel free. I still
have coin enough, I think.
Coin that might have bought us food, Sam thought, coin that might have bought wood, so
Maester Aemon could keep warm. What have you done? You cant marry. You said the words,
the same as me. They could have your head for this.
Were only wed for this one night, Slayer. Even in Westeros no one takes your head for that.
Havent you ever gone to Moles Town to dig for buried treasure?
No. Sam reddened. I would never...
What about your wildling wench? You must have fucked her a time or three. All those nights
in the woods, huddled together under your cloak, dont you tell me that you never stuck it in
her. He waved a hand toward a chair. Sit down, Slayer. Have a cup of wine. Have a whore.
Have both.
Sam did not want a cup of wine. You promised to come back before the gloaming. To bring
back wine and food.
Is this how you killed that Other? Scolding him to death? Dareon laughed. Shes my wife,
not you. If you will not drink to my marriage, go away.
Come with me, said Sam. Maester Aemons woken up and wants to hear about these
dragons. Hes talking about bleeding stars and white shadows and dreams and... if we could find
out more about these dragons, it might help give him ease. Help me.
On the morrow. Not on my wedding night. Dareon pushed himself to his feet, took his bride
by the hand, and started toward the stairs, pulling her behind him.
Sam blocked his way. You promised, Dareon. You said the words. Youre supposed to be my
brother.
In Westeros. Does this look like Westeros to you?
Maester Aemon
is dying. That stripey healer you wasted all our silver on said as much. Dareons mouth had
turned hard. Have a girl or go away, Sam. Youre ruining my wedding.

Ill go, said Sam, but youll come with me.
No. Im done with you. Im done with black. Dareon tore his cloak off his naked bride and
tossed it in Sams face. Here. Throw that rag on the old man, it may keep him a little warmer. I
shant be needing it. Ill be clad in velvet soon. Next year Ill be wearing furs and eating
Sam hit him.
He did not think about it. His hand came up, curled into a fist, and crashed into the singers
mouth. Dareon cursed and his naked wife gave a shriek and Sam threw himself onto the singer
and knocked him backwards over a low table. They were almost of a height, but Sam weighed
twice as much, and for once he was too angry to be afraid. He punched the singer in the face and
in the belly, then began to pummel him about the shoulders with both hands. When Dareon
grabbed his wrists, Sam butted him with his head and broke his lip. The singer let go and he
smashed him in the nose. Somewhere a man was laughing, a woman cursing. The fight seemed
to slow, as if they were two black flies struggling in amber. Then someone dragged Sam off the
singers chest. He hit that person too, and something hard crashed into his head.
The next he knew he was outside, flying headfirst through the fog. For half a heartbeat he saw
black water underneath him. Then the canal came up and smashed him in the face.
Sam sank like a stone, like a boulder, like a mountain. The water got into his eyes and up his
nose, dark and cold and salty. When he tried to shout for help he swallowed more. Kicking and
gasping, he rolled over, bubbles bursting from his nose. Swim, he told himself, swim. The brine
stung his eyes when he opened them, blinding him. He popped to the surface for just an instant,
sucked down air, and slapped desperately with one hand whilst the other scrabbled at the wall of
the canal. But the stones were slick and slimy and he could not get a grasp. He sank again.
Sam could feel the cold against his skin as the water soaked through his clothes. His swordbelt
slipped down his legs and tangled round his ankles. Im going to drown, he thought, in a blind
black panic. He thrashed, trying to claw his way back to the surface, but instead his face bumped
the bottom of the canal. Im upside down, he realized, Im drowning. Something moved beneath
one flailing hand, an eel or a fish, slithering through his fingers. I cant drown, Maester Aemon
will die without me, and Gilly will have no one. I have to swim, I have to...
There was a huge splash, and something coiled around him, under his arms and around his
chest. The eel, was his first thought, the eel has got me, its going to pull me down. He opened
his mouth to scream, and swallowed more water. Im drowned, was his last thought. Oh, gods be
good, Im drowned.
When he opened his eyes he was on his back and a big black Summer Islander was pounding on
his belly with fists the size of hams. Stop that, youre hurting me, Sam tried to scream. Instead of
words he retched out water, and gasped. He was sodden and shivering, lying on the cobbles in a
puddle of canal water. The Summer Islander punched him in the belly again, and more water
came squirting out his nose. Stop that, Sam gasped. I havent drowned. I havent drowned.
No. His rescuer leaned over him, huge and black and dripping. You owe Xhondo many
feathers. The water ruined Xhondos fine cloak.

It had, Sam saw. The feathered cloak clung to the black mans huge shoulders, sodden and
soiled. I never meant...
... to be swimming? Xhondo saw. Too much splashing. Fat men should float. He grabbed
Sams doublet with a huge black fist and hauled him to his feet. Xhondo mates on Cinnamon
Wind. Many tongues he speaks, a little. Inside Xhondo laughs, to see you punch the singer. And
Xhondo hears. A broad white smile spread across his face. Xhondo knows these dragons.

JAIME
I had hoped that by now you would have grown tired of that wretched beard. All that
hair makes you look like Robert. His sister had put aside her mourning for a jade-green gown
with sleeves of silver Myrish lace. An emerald the size of a pigeons egg hung on a golden chain
about her neck.
Roberts beard was black. Mine is gold.
Gold? Or silver? Cersei plucked a hair from beneath his chin and held it up. It was grey. All
the color is draining out of you, brother. Youve become a ghost of what you were, a pale
crippled thing. And so bloodless, always in white. She flicked the hair away. I prefer you
garbed in crimson and gold.
I prefer you dappled in sunlight, with water beading on your naked skin. He wanted to kiss her,
carry her to her bedchamber, throw her on the bed... . shes been fucking Lancel and Osmund
Kettleblack and Moon Boy... I will make a bargain with you. Relieve me of this duty, and my
razor is yours to command.
Her mouth tightened. She had been drinking hot spiced wine and smelled of nutmeg. You
presume to dicker with me? Need I remind you, you are sworn to obey.
I am sworn to protect the king. My place is at his side.
Your place is wherever he sends you.
Tommen puts his seal on every paper that you put in front of him. This is your doing, and its
folly. Why name Daven your Warden of the West if you have no faith in him?
Cersei took a seat beneath the window. Behind her Jaime could see the blackened ruin of the
Tower of the Hand. Why so reluctant, ser? Did you lose your courage with your hand?
I swore an oath to Lady Stark, never again to take up arms against the Starks or Tullys.
A drunken promise made with a sword at your throat.
How can I defend Tommen if I am not with him?
By defeating his enemies. Father always said that a swift sword stroke is a better defense than
any shield. Admittedly, most sword strokes require a hand. Still, even a crippled lion may inspire
fear. I want Riverrun. I want Brynden Tully chained or dead. And someone needs to set
Harrenhal to rights. We have urgent need of Wylis Manderly, assuming he is still alive and
captive, but the garrison has not replied to any of our ravens.
Those are Gregors men at Harrenhal, Jaime reminded her. The Mountain liked them cruel
and stupid. Most like they ate your ravens, messages and all.
Thats why Im sending you. They may eat you as well, brave brother, but I trust youll give
them indigestion. Cersei smoothed her skirt. I want Ser Osmund to command the Kingsguard
in your absence.
... shes been fucking Lancel and Osmund Kettleblack and Moon Boy for all I know... Thats
not your choice. If I must go, Ser Loras will command here in my stead.
Is that a jape? You know how I feel about Ser Loras.
If you had not sent Balon Swann to Dorne

I need him there. These Dornishmen cannot be trusted. That red snake championed Tyrion,
have you forgotten that? I will not leave my daughter to their mercy. And I will not have Loras
Tyrell commanding the Kingsguard.
Ser Loras is thrice the man Ser Osmund is.
Your notions of manhood have changed somewhat, brother.
Jaime felt his anger rising. True, Loras does not leer at your teats the way Ser Osmund does,
but I hardly think
Think about this. Cersei slapped his face.
Jaime made no attempt to block the blow. I see I need a thicker beard, to cushion me against
my queens caresses. He wanted to rip her gown off and turn her blows to kisses. Hed done it
before, back when he had two good hands.
The queens eyes were green ice. You had best go, ser.
... Lancel, Osmund Kettleblack, and Moon Boy...
Are you deaf as well as maimed? Youll find the door behind you, ser.
As you command. Jaime turned on his heel and left her.
Somewhere the gods were laughing. Cersei had never taken kindly to being balked, he knew
that. Softer words might have swayed her, yet of late the very sight of her made him angry.
Part of him would be glad to put Kings Landing behind him. He had no taste for the company
of the lickspittles and fools who surrounded Cersei. The smallest council, they were calling
them in Flea Bottom, according to Addam Marbrand. And Qyburn... he might have saved
Jaimes life, but he was still a Bloody Mummer. Qyburn stinks of secrets, he warned Cersei.
That only made her laugh. We all have secrets, brother, she replied.
... shes been fucking Lancel and Osmund Kettleblack and Moon Boy for all I know...
Forty knights and as many esquires awaited him outside the Red Keeps stables. Half were
westermen sworn to House Lannister, the others recent foes turned doubtful friends. Ser Dermot
of the Rainwood would carry Tommens standard, Red Ronnet Connington the white banner of
the Kingsguard. A Paege, a Piper, and a Peckledon would share the honor of squiring for the
Lord Commander. Keep friends at your back and foes where you can see them, Sumner
Crakehall had once counseled him. Or had that been Father?
His palfrey was a blood bay, his destrier a magnificent grey stallion. It had been long years
since Jaime had named any of his horses; he had seen too many die in battle, and that was harder
when you named them. But when the Piper boy started calling them Honor and Glory, he
laughed and let the names stand. Glory wore trappings of Lannister crimson; Honor was barded
in Kingsguard white. Josmyn Peckledon held the palfreys reins as Ser Jaime mounted. The
squire was skinny as a spear, with long arms and legs, greasy mouse-brown hair, and cheeks soft
with peach fuzz. His cloak was Lannister crimson, but his surcoat showed the ten purple mullets
of his own House arrayed upon a yellow field. My lord, the lad asked, will you be wanting
your new hand?
Wear it, Jaime, urged Ser Kennos of Kayce. Wave at the smallfolk and give them a tale to
tell their children.

I think not. Jaime would not show the crowds a golden lie. Let them see the stump. Let them
see the cripple. But feel free to make up for my lack, Ser Kennos. Wave with both hands, and
waggle your feet if it please you. He gathered the reins in his left hand and wheeled his horse
around. Payne, he called as the rest were forming up, youll ride beside me.
Ser Ilyn Payne made his way to Jaimes side, looking like the beggar at the ball. His ringmail
was old and rusted, worn over a stained jack of boiled leather. Neither the man nor his mount
showed any heraldry; his shield was so hacked and battered it was hard to say what color paint
might once have covered it. With his grim face and deep-sunk hollow eyes, Ser Ilyn might have
passed for death himself... as he had, for years.
No longer, though. Ser Ilyn had been half of Jaimes price, for swallowing his boy kings
command like a good little Lord Commander. The other half had been Ser Addam Marbrand. I
need them, he had told his sister, and Cersei had not put up a fight. Most like shes pleased to
rid herself of them. Ser Addam was a boyhood friend of Jaimes, and the silent headsman had
belonged to their father, if he belonged to anyone. Payne had been the captain of the Hands
guard when he had been heard boasting that it was Lord Tywin who ruled the Seven Kingdoms
and told King Aerys what to do. Aerys Targaryen took his tongue for that.
Open the gates, said Jaime, and Strongboar, in his booming voice, called out, OPEN THE
GATES!
When Mace Tyrell had marched out through the Mud Gate to the sound of drums and fiddles,
thousands lined the streets to cheer him off. Little boys had joined the march, striding along
beside the Tyrell soldiers with heads held high and legs pumping, whilst their sisters threw down
kisses from the windows.
Not so today. A few whores called out invitations as they passed, and a meat pie man cried his
wares. In Cobblers Square two threadbare sparrows were haranguing several hundred smallfolk,
crying doom upon the heads of godless men and demon worshipers. The crowd parted for the
column. Sparrows and cobblers alike looked on with dull eyes. They like the smell of roses but
have no love for lions, Jaime observed. My sister would be wise to take note of that. Ser Ilyn
made no reply. The perfect companion for a long ride. I will enjoy his conversation.
The greater part of his command awaited him beyond the city walls; Ser Addam Marbrand with
his outriders, Ser Steffon Swyft and the baggage train, the Holy Hundred of old Ser Bonifer the
Good, Sarsfields mounted archers, Maester Gulian with four cages full of ravens, two hundred
heavy horse under Ser Flement Brax. Not a great host, all in all; fewer than a thousand men in
total. Numbers were the last thing needed at Riverrun. A Lannister army already invested the
castle, and an even larger force of Freys; the last bird theyd received suggested that the
besiegers were having difficulty keeping themselves fed. Brynden Tully had scoured the land
clean before retiring behind his walls.
Not that it required much scouring. From what Jaime had seen of the riverlands, scarce a field
remained unburnt, a town unsacked, a maiden undespoiled. And now my sweet sister sends me
to finish the work that Amory Lorch and Gregor Clegane began. It left a bitter taste in his mouth.

This near to Kings Landing, the kingsroad was as safe as any road could be in such times, yet
Jaime sent Marbrand and his outriders ahead to scout. Robb Stark took me unawares in the
Whispering Wood, he said. That will never happen again.
You have my word on it. Marbrand seemed visibly relieved to be ahorse again, wearing the
smoke-grey cloak of his own House instead of the gold wool of the City Watch. If any foe
should come within a dozen leagues, you will know of them beforehand.
Jaime had given stern commands that no man was to depart the column without his leave.
Elsewise, he knew he would have bored young lordlings racing through the fields, scattering
livestock and trampling down the crops. There were still cows and sheep to be seen near the city;
apples on the trees and berries in the brush, stands of barleycorn and oats and winter wheat,
wayns and oxcarts on the road. Farther afield, things would not be so rosy.
Riding at the front of the host with Ser Ilyn silent by his side, Jaime felt almost content. The sun
was warm on his back and the wind riffled through his hair like a womans fingers. When Little
Lew Piper came galloping up with a helm full of blackberries, Jaime ate a handful and told the
boy to share the rest with his fellow squires and Ser Ilyn Payne.
Payne seemed as comfortable in his silence as in his rusted ringmail and boiled leather. The
clop of his geldings hooves and the rattle of sword in scabbard whenever he shifted his seat
were the only sounds he made. Though his pox-scarred face was grim and his eyes as cold as ice
on a winter lake, Jaime sensed that he was glad hed come. I gave the man a choice, he reminded
himself. He could have refused me and remained Kings Justice.
Ser Ilyns appointment had been a wedding gift from Robert Baratheon to the father of his
bride, a sinecure to compensate Payne for the tongue hed lost in the service of House Lannister.
He made a splendid headsman. He had never botched an execution, and seldom required as much
as a second stroke. And there was something about his silence that inspired terror. Seldom had a
Kings Justice seemed so well fitted for his office.
When Jaime decided to take him, he had sought out Ser Ilyns chambers at the end of Traitors
Walk. The upper floor of the squat, half-round tower was divided into cells for prisoners who
required some measure of comfort, captive knights or lordlings awaiting ransom or exchange.
The entrance to the dungeons proper was at ground level, behind a door of hammered iron and a
second of splintery grey wood. On the floors between were rooms set aside for the use of the
Chief Gaoler, the Lord Confessor, and the Kings Justice. The Justice was a headsman, but by
tradition he also had charge of the dungeons and the men who kept them.
And for that task, Ser Ilyn Payne was singularly ill suited. As he could neither read, nor write,
nor speak, Ser Ilyn had left the running of the dungeons to his underlings, such as they were. The
realm had not had a Lord Confessor since the second Daeron, however, and the last Chief Gaoler
had been a cloth merchant who purchased the office from Littlefinger during Roberts reign. No
doubt hed had good profit from it for a few years, until he made the error of conspiring with
some other rich fools to give the Iron Throne to Stannis. They called themselves Antler Men,
so Joff had nailed antlers to their heads before flinging them over the city walls. So it had been
left to Rennifer Longwaters, the head undergaoler with the twisted back who claimed at tedious

length to have a drop of dragon in him, to unlock the dungeon doors for Jaime and conduct
him up the narrow steps inside the walls to the place where Ilyn Payne had lived for fifteen
years.
The chambers stank of rotted food, and the rushes were crawling with vermin. As Jaime
entered, he almost trod upon a rat. Paynes greatsword rested on a trestle table, beside a
whetstone and a greasy oilcloth. The steel was immaculate, the edge glimmering blue in the pale
light, but elsewhere piles of soiled clothing were strewn about the floors, and the bits of mail and
armor scattered here and there were red with rust. Jaime could not count the broken wine jars.
The man cares for naught but killing, he thought, as Ser Ilyn emerged from a bedchamber that
reeked of overflowing chamber pots. His Grace bids me win back his riverlands, Jaime told
him. I would have you with me... if you can bear to give up all of this.
Silence was his answer, and a long, unblinking stare. But just as he was about to turn and take
his leave, Payne had given him a nod. And here he rides. Jaime glanced at his companion.
Perhaps there is yet hope for the both of us.
That night they made camp beneath the hilltop castle of the Hayfords. As the sun went down, a
hundred tents sprouted beneath the hill, along the banks of the stream that ran beside it. Jaime set
the sentries himself. He did not expect trouble this close to the city, but his uncle Stafford had
once thought himself safe on the Oxcross too. It was best to take no chances.
When the invitation came down from the castle for him to sup with Lady Hayfords castellan,
Jaime took Ser Ilyn with him, along with Ser Addam Marbrand, Ser Bonifer Hasty, Red Ronnet
Connington, Strongboar, and a dozen other knights and lordlings. I suppose I ought to wear the
hand, he said to Peck before making his ascent.
The lad fetched it straightaway. The hand was wrought of gold, very lifelike, with inlaid nails
of mother-of-pearl, its fingers and thumb half closed so as to slip around a goblets stem. I
cannot fight, but I can drink, Jaime reflected as the lad was tightening the straps that bound it to
his stump. Men shall name you Goldenhand from this day forth, my lord, the armorer had
assured him the first time hed fitted it onto Jaimes wrist. He was wrong. I shall be the
Kingslayer till I die.
The golden hand was the occasion for much admiring comment over supper, at least until Jaime
knocked over a goblet of wine. Then his temper got the best of him. If you admire the bloody
thing so much, lop off your own sword hand and you can have it, he told Flement Brax. After
that there was no more talk about his hand, and he managed to drink some wine in peace.
The lady of the castle was a Lannister by marriage, a plump toddler who had been wed to his
cousin Tyrek before she was a year old. Lady Ermesande was duly trotted out for their approval,
all trussed up in a little gown of cloth-of-gold, with the green fretty and green pale wavy of
House Hayford rendered in tiny beads of jade. But soon enough the girl began to squall,
whereupon she was promptly whisked off to bed by her wet nurse.
Has there been no word of our Lord Tyrek? her castellan asked as a course of trout was
served.

None. Tyrek Lannister had vanished during the riots in Kings Landing whilst Jaime himself
was still captive at Riverrun. The boy would be fourteen by now, assuming he was still alive.
I led a search myself, at Lord Tywins command, offered Addam Marbrand as he boned his
fish, but I found no more than Bywater had before me. The boy was last seen ahorse, when the
press of the mob broke the line of gold cloaks. Afterward... well, his palfrey was found, but not
the rider. Most like they pulled him down and slew him. But if thats so, where is his body? The
mob let the other corpses lie, why not his?
He would be of more value alive, suggested Strongboar. Any Lannister would bring a hefty
ransom.
No doubt, Marbrand agreed, yet no ransom demand was ever made. The boy is simply
gone.
The boy is dead. Jaime had drunk three cups of wine, and his golden hand seemed to be
growing heavier and clumsier by the moment. A hook would serve me just as well. If they
realized whom theyd killed, no doubt they threw him in the river for fear of my fathers wrath.
They know the taste of that in Kings Landing. Lord Tywin always paid his debts.
Always, Strongboar agreed, and that was the end of that.
Yet afterward, alone in the tower room he had been offered for the night, Jaime found himself
wondering. Tyrek had served King Robert as a squire, side by side with Lancel. Knowledge
could be more valuable than gold, more deadly than a dagger. It was Varys he thought of then,
smiling and smelling of lavender. The eunuch had agents and informers all over the city. It
would have been a simple matter for him to arrange to have Tyrek snatched during the
confusion... provided he knew beforehand that the mob was like to riot. And Varys knew all, or
so he would have us believe. Yet he gave Cersei no warning of that riot. Nor did he ride down to
the ships to see Myrcella off.
He opened the shutters. The night was growing cold, and a horned moon rode the sky. His hand
shone dully in its light. No good for throttling eunuchs, but heavy enough to smash that slimy
smile into a fine red ruin. He wanted to hit someone.
Jaime found Ser Ilyn honing his greatsword. Its time, he told the man. The headsman rose
and followed, his cracked leather boots scraping against the steep stone steps as they went down
the stair. A small courtyard opened off the armory. Jaime found two shields there, two halfhelms,
and a pair of blunted tourney swords. He offered one to Payne and took the other in his left hand
as he slid his right through the loops of the shield. His golden fingers were curved enough to
hook, but could not grasp, so his hold upon the shield was loose. You were a knight once, ser,
Jaime said. So was I. Let us see what we are now.
Ser Ilyn raised his blade in reply, and Jaime moved at once to the attack. Payne was as rusty as
his ringmail, and not so strong as Brienne, yet he met every cut with his own blade, or interposed
his shield. They danced beneath the horned moon as the blunted swords sang their steely song.
The silent knight was content to let Jaime lead the dance for a while, but finally he began to
answer stroke for stroke. Once he shifted to the attack, he caught Jaime on the thigh, on the
shoulder, on the forearm. Thrice he made his head ring with cuts to the helm. One slash ripped

the shield off his right arm, and almost burst the straps that bound his golden hand to his stump.
By the time they lowered their swords he was bruised and battered, but the wine had burned
away and his head was clear. We will dance again, he promised Ser Ilyn. On the morrow, and
the morrow. Every day well dance, till I am as good with my left hand as ever I was with the
right.
Ser Ilyn opened his mouth and made a clacking sound. A laugh, Jaime realized. Something
twisted in his gut.
Come morning, none of the others was so bold as to make mention of his bruises. Not one of
them had heard the sound of swordplay in the night, it would seem. Yet when they climbed back
down to camp, Little Lew Piper voiced the question the knights and lordlings dared not ask.
Jaime grinned at him. They have lusty wenches in House Hayford. These are love bites, lad.
Another bright and blustery day was followed by a cloudy one, then three days of rain. Wind
and water made no matter. The column kept its pace, north along the kingsroad, and each night
Jaime found some private place to win himself more love bites. They fought inside a stable as a
one-eyed mule looked on, and in the cellar of an inn amongst the casks of wine and ale. They
fought in the blackened shell of a big stone barn, on a wooded island in a shallow stream, and in
an open field as the rain pattered softly against their helms and shields.
Jaime made excuses for his nightly forays, but he was not so foolish as to think that they were
believed. Addam Marbrand knew what he was about, surely, and some of his other captains must
have suspected. But no one spoke of it in his hearing... and since the only witness lacked a
tongue, he need not fear anyone learning just how inept a swordsman the Kingslayer had
become.
Soon the signs of war could be seen on every hand. Weeds and thorns and brushy trees grew
high as a horses head in fields where autumn wheat should be ripening, the kingsroad was bereft
of travelers, and wolves ruled the weary world from dusk till dawn. Most of the animals were
wary enough to keep their distance, but one of Marbrands outriders had his horse run off and
killed when he dismounted for a piss. No beast would be so bold, declared Ser Bonifer the
Good, of the stern sad face. These are demons in the skins of wolves, sent to chastise us for our
sins.
This must have been an uncommonly sinful horse, Jaime said, standing over what remained
of the poor animal. He gave orders for the rest of the carcass to be cut apart and salted down; it
might be they would need the meat.
At a place called Sows Horn they found a tough old knight named Ser Roger Hogg squatting
stubbornly in his towerhouse with six men-at-arms, four crossbowmen, and a score of peasants.
Ser Roger was as big and bristly as his name and Ser Kennos suggested that he might be some
lost Crakehall, since their sigil was a brindled boar. Strongboar seemed to believe it and spent an
earnest hour questioning Ser Roger about his ancestors.
Jaime was more interested in what Hogg had to say of wolves. We had some trouble with a
band of them white star wolves, the old knight told him. They come round sniffing after you,
my lord, but we saw them off, and buried three down by the turnips. Before them there was a

pack of bloody lions, begging your pardon. The one who led them had a manticore on his
shield.
Ser Amory Lorch, Jaime offered. My lord father commanded him to harry the riverlands.
Which were no part of, Ser Roger Hogg said stoutly. My fealtys owed to House Hayford,
and Lady Ermesande bends her little knee at Kings Landing, or will when shes old enough to
walk. I told him that, but this Lorch wasnt much for listening. He slaughtered half my sheep and
three good milk goats, and tried to roast me in my tower. My walls are solid stone and eight feet
thick, though, so after his fire burned out he rode off bored. The wolves come later, the ones on
four legs. They ate the sheep the manticore left me. I got a few good pelts in recompense, but fur
dont fill your belly. What should we do, my lord?
Plant, said Jaime, and pray for one last harvest. It was not a hopeful answer, but it was the
only one he had.
The next day, the column crossed the stream that formed the boundary between the lands that
did fealty to Kings Landing and those beholden to Riverrun. Maester Gulian consulted a map
and announced that these hills were held by the brothers Wode, a pair of landed knights sworn to
Harrenhal... but their halls had been earth and timber, and only blackened beams remained of
them.
No Wodes appeared, nor any of their smallfolk, though some outlaws had taken shelter in the
root cellar beneath the second brothers keep. One of them wore the ruins of a crimson cloak, but
Jaime hanged him with the rest. It felt good. This was justice. Make a habit of it, Lannister, and
one day men might call you Goldenhand after all. Goldenhand the Just.
The world grew ever greyer as they drew near to Harrenhal. They rode beneath slate skies,
beside waters that shone old and cold as a sheet of beaten steel. Jaime found himself wondering
if Brienne might have passed this way before him. If she thought that Sansa Stark had made for
Riverrun... Had they encountered other travelers, he might have stopped to ask if any of them
had chance to see a pretty maid with auburn hair, or a big ugly one with a face that would curdle
milk. But there was no one on the roads but wolves, and their howling held no answers.
Across the pewter waters of the lake the towers of Black Harrens folly appeared at last, five
twisted fingers of black, misshapen stone grasping for the sky. Though Littlefinger had been
named the Lord of Harrenhal, he seemed in no great haste to occupy his new seat, so it had fallen
to Jaime Lannister to sort out Harrenhal on his way to Riverrun.
That it needed sorting out he did not doubt. Gregor Clegane had wrested the immense, gloomy
castle away from the Bloody Mummers before Cersei recalled him to Kings Landing. No doubt
the Mountains men were still rattling around inside like so many dried peas in a suit of plate, but
they were not ideally suited to restore the kings peace to the Trident. The only peace Ser
Gregors lot had ever given anyone was the peace of the grave.
Ser Addams outriders had reported that the gates of Harrenhal were closed and barred. Jaime
drew his men up before them and commanded Ser Kennos of Kayce to sound the Horn of
Herrock, black and twisted and banded in old gold.

When three blasts had echoed off the walls, they heard the groan of iron hinges and the gates
swung slowly open. So thick were the walls of Black Harrens folly that Jaime passed beneath a
dozen murder holes before emerging into sudden sunlight in the yard where hed bid farewell to
the Bloody Mummers, not so long ago. Weeds were sprouting from the hard-packed earth, and
flies buzzed about the carcass of a horse.
A handful of Ser Gregors men emerged from the towers to watch him dismount; hard-eyed,
hard-mouthed men, the lot of them. They would have to be, to ride beside the Mountain. About
the best that could be said for Gregors men was that they were not quite as vile and violent a
bunch as the Brave Companions. Fuck me, Jaime Lannister, blurted one grey and grizzled
man-at-arms. Its the bleeding Kingslayer, boys. Fuck me with a spear!
Who might you be? Jaime asked.
Ser used to call me Shitmouth, if it please mlord. He spit in his hands and wiped his cheeks
with them, as if that would somehow make him more presentable.
Charming. Do you command here?
Me? Shit, no. Mlord. Bugger me with a bloody spear. Shitmouth had enough crumbs in his
beard to feed the garrison. Jaime had to laugh. The man took that for encouragement. Bugger
me with a bloody spear, he said again, and started laughing too.
You heard the man, Jaime said to Ilyn Payne. Find a nice long spear, and shove it up his
arse.
Ser Ilyn did not have a spear, but Beardless Jon Bettley was glad to toss him one. Shitmouths
drunken laughter stopped abruptly. You keep that bloody thing away from me.
Make up your mind, said Jaime. Who has the command here? Did Ser Gregor name a
castellan?
Polliver, another man said, only the Hound killed him, mlord. Him and the Tickler both,
and that Sarsfield boy.
The Hound again. You know it was Sandor? You saw him?
Not us, mlord. That innkeep told us.
It happened at the crossroads inn, my lord. The speaker was a younger man with a mop of
sandy hair. He wore the chain of coins that had once belonged to Vargo Hoat; coins from half a
hundred distant cities, silver and gold, copper and bronze, square coins and round coins, triangles
and rings and bits of bone. The innkeep swore the man had one side of his face all burned. His
whores told the same tale. Sandor had some boy with him, a ragged peasant lad. They hacked
Polly and the Tickler to bloody bits and rode off down the Trident, we were told.
Did you send men after them?
Shitmouth frowned, as if the thought were painful. No, mlord. Fuck us all, we never did.
When a dog goes mad you cut his throat.
Well, the man said, rubbing his mouth, I never much liked Polly, that shit, and the dog, he
were Sers brother, so...
Were bad, mlord, broke in the man who wore the coins, but youd need to be mad to face
the Hound.

Jaime looked him over. Bolder than the rest, and not as drunk as Shitmouth. You were afraid
of him.
I wouldnt say afraid, mlord. Id say we was leaving him for our betters. Someone like Ser.
Or you.
Me, when I had two hands. Jaime did not delude himself. Sandor would make short work of
him now. You have a name?
Rafford, if it pleases. Most call me Raff.
Raff, gather the garrison together in the Hall of a Hundred Hearths. Your captives as well. Ill
want to see them. Those whores from the crossroads too. Oh, and Hoat. I was distraught to hear
that he had died. Id like to look upon his head.
When they brought it to him, he found that the Goats lips had been sliced off, along with his
ears and most of his nose. The crows had supped upon his eyes. It was still recognizably Hoat,
however. Jaime would have known his beard anywhere; an absurd rope of hair two feet long,
dangling from a pointed chin. Elsewise, only a few leathery strips of flesh still clung to the
Qohoriks skull. Where is the rest of him? he asked.
No one wanted to tell him. Finally, Shitmouth lowered his eyes, and muttered, Rotted, ser.
And et.
One of the captives was always begging food, Rafford admitted, so Ser said to give him
roast goat. The Qohorik didnt have much meat on him, though. Ser took his hands and feet first,
then his arms and legs.
The fat bugger got most, mlord, Shitmouth offered, but Ser, he said to see that all the
captives had a taste. And Hoat too, his own self. That whoreson ud slobber when we fed him,
and the greased run down into that skinny beard o his.
Father, Jaime thought, your dogs have both gone mad. He found himself remembering tales he
had first heard as a child at Casterly Rock, of mad Lady Lothston who bathed in tubs of blood
and presided over feasts of human flesh within these very walls.
Somehow revenge had lost its savor. Take this and throw it in the lake. Jaime tossed Hoats
head to Peck, and turned to address the garrison. Until such time as Lord Petyr arrives to claim
his seat, Ser Bonifer Hasty shall hold Harrenhal in the name of the crown. Those of you who
wish may join him, if hell have you. The rest will ride with me to Riverrun.
The Mountains men looked at one another. Were owed, said one. Ser promised us. Rich
rewards, he said.
His very words, Shitmouth agreed. Rich rewards, for them as rides with me. A dozen
others began to yammer their assent.
Ser Bonifer raised a gloved hand. Any man who remains with me shall have a hide of land to
work, a second hide when he takes a wife, a third at the birth of his first child.
Land, ser? Shitmouth spat. Piss on that. If we wanted to grub in the bloody dirt, we could
have bloody well stayed home, begging your pardon, ser. Rich rewards, Ser said. Meaning gold.
If you have a grievance, go to Kings Landing and take it up with my sweet sister. Jaime
turned to Rafford. Ill see those captives now. Starting with Ser Wylis Manderly.

He the fat one? asked Rafford.
I devoutly hope so. And tell me no sad stories of how he died, or the lot of you are apt to do
the same.
Any hopes he might have nursed of finding Shagwell, Pyg, or Zollo languishing in the
dungeons were sadly disappointed. The Brave Companions had abandoned Vargo Hoat to a man,
it would seem. Of Lady Whents people, only three remainedthe cook who had opened the
postern gate for Ser Gregor, a bent-back armorer called Ben Blackthumb, and a girl named Pia,
who was not near as pretty as she had been when Jaime saw her last. Someone had broken her
nose and knocked out half her teeth. The girl fell at Jaimes feet when she saw him, sobbing and
clinging to his leg with hysterical strength till Strongboar pulled her off. No one will hurt you
now, he told her, but that only made her sob the louder.
The other captives had been better treated. Ser Wylis Manderly was amongst them, along with
several other highborn northmen taken prisoner by the Mountain That Rides in the fighting at the
fords of the Trident. Useful hostages, all worth a goodly ransom. They were ragged, filthy, and
shaggy to a man, and some had fresh bruises, cracked teeth, and missing fingers, but their
wounds had been washed and bandaged, and none of them had gone hungry. Jaime wondered if
they had any inkling what theyd been eating, and decided it was better not to inquire.
None had any defiance left; especially not Ser Wylis, a bushy-faced tub of suet with dull eyes
and sallow, sagging jowls. When Jaime told him that he would be escorted to Maidenpool and
there put on a ship for White Harbor, Ser Wylis collapsed into a puddle on the floor and sobbed
longer and louder than Pia had. It took four men to lift him back onto his feet. Too much roast
goat, Jaime reflected. Gods, but I hate this bloody castle. Harrenhal had seen more horror in its
three hundred years than Casterly Rock had witnessed in three thousand.
Jaime commanded that fires be lit in the Hall of a Hundred Hearths and sent the cook hobbling
back to the kitchens to prepare a hot meal for the men of his column. Anything but goat.
He took his own supper in Hunters Hall with Ser Bonifer Hasty, a solemn stork of a man prone
to salting his speech with appeals to the Seven. I want none of Ser Gregors followers, he
declared as he was cutting up a pear as withered as he was, so as to make certain that its
nonexistent juice did not stain his pristine purple doublet, embroidered with the white bend
cotised of his House. I will not have such sinners in my service.
My septon used to say all men were sinners.
He was not wrong, Ser Bonifer allowed, but some sins are blacker than others, and fouler in
the nostrils of the Seven.
And you have no more nose than my little brother, or my own sins would have you choking on
that pear. Very well. Ill take Gregors lot off your hands. He could always find a use for
fighters. If nothing else, he could send them up the ladders first, should he need to storm the
walls of Riverrun.
Take the whore as well, Ser Bonifer urged. You know the one. The girl from the dungeons.
Pia. The last time he had been here, Qyburn had sent the girl to his bed, thinking that would
please him. But the Pia they had brought up from the dungeons was a different creature from the

sweet, simple, giggly creature whod crawled beneath his blankets. She had made the mistake of
speaking when Ser Gregor wanted quiet, so the Mountain had smashed her teeth to splinters with
a mailed fist and broken her pretty little nose as well. He would have done worse, no doubt, if
Cersei had not called him down to Kings Landing to face the Red Vipers spear. Jaime would
not mourn him. Pia was born in this castle, he told Ser Bonifer. It is the only home she has
ever known.
She is a font of corruption, said Ser Bonifer. I wont have her near my men, flaunting her...
parts.
I expect her flaunting days are done, he said, but if you find her that objectionable, Ill take
her. He could make her a washerwoman, he supposed. His squires did not mind raising his tent,
grooming his horse, or cleaning his armor, but the task of caring for his clothes struck them as
unmanly. Can you hold Harrenhal with just your Holy Hundred? Jaime asked. They should
actually be called the Holy Eighty-Six, having lost fourteen men upon the Blackwater, but no
doubt Ser Bonifer would fill up his ranks again as soon as he found some sufficiently pious
recruits.
I anticipate no difficulty. The Crone will light our way, and the Warrior will give strength to
our arms.
Or else the Stranger will turn up for the whole holy lot of you. Jaime could not be certain who
had convinced his sister that Ser Bonifer should be named castellan of Harrenhal, but the
appointment smelled of Orton Merryweather. Hasty had once served Merryweathers grandsire,
he seemed to recall dimly. And the carrot-haired justiciar was just the sort of simpleminded fool
to assume that someone called the Good was the very potion the riverlands required to heal the
wounds left by Roose Bolton, Vargo Hoat, and Gregor Clegane.
But he might not be wrong. Hasty hailed from the stormlands, so had neither friends nor foes
along the Trident; no blood feuds, no debts to pay, no cronies to reward. He was sober, just, and
dutiful, and his Holy Eighty-Six were as well disciplined as any soldiers in the Seven Kingdoms,
and made a lovely sight as they wheeled and pranced their tall grey geldings. Littlefinger had
once quipped that Ser Bonifer must have gelded the riders too, so spotless was their repute.
All the same, Jaime wondered about any soldiers who were better known for their lovely horses
than for the foes theyd slain. They pray well, I suppose, but can they fight? They had not
disgraced themselves on the Blackwater, so far as he knew, but they had not distinguished
themselves either. Ser Bonifer himself had been a promising knight in his youth, but something
had happened to him, a defeat or a disgrace or a near brush with death, and afterward he had
decided that jousting was an empty vanity and put away his lance for good and all.
Harrenhal must be held, though, and Baelor Butthole here is the man that Cersei chose to hold
it. This castle has an ill repute, he warned him, and one thats well deserved. Its said that
Harren and his sons still walk the halls by night, afire. Those who look upon them burst into
flame.
I fear no shade, ser. It is written in The Seven-Pointed Star that spirits, wights, and revenants
cannot harm a pious man, so long as he is armored in his faith.

Then armor yourself in faith, by all means, but wear a suit of mail and plate as well. Every
man who holds this castle seems to come to a bad end. The Mountain, the Goat, even my
father...
If you will forgive my saying so, they were not godly men, as we are. The Warrior defends us,
and help is always near, if some dread foe should threaten. Maester Gulian will be remaining
with his ravens, Lord Lancel is nearby at Darry with his garrison, and Lord Randyll holds
Maidenpool. Together we three shall hunt down and destroy whatever outlaws prowl these parts.
Once that is done, the Seven will guide the goodfolk back to their villages to plow and plant and
build anew.
The ones the Goat didnt kill, at least. Jaime hooked his golden fingers round the stem of his
wine goblet. If any of Hoats Brave Companions fall into your hands, send word to me at once.
The Stranger might have made off with the Goat before Jaime could get around to him, but fat
Zollo was still out there, with Shagwell, Rorge, Faithful Urswyck, and the rest.
So you can torture them and kill them?
I suppose you would forgive them, in my place?
If they made sincere repentance for their sins... yes, I would embrace them all as brothers and
pray with them before I sent them to the block. Sins may be forgiven. Crimes require
punishment. Hasty folded his hands before him like a steeple, in a way that reminded Jaime
uncomfortably of his father. If it is Sandor Clegane that we encounter, what would you have me
do?
Pray hard, Jaime thought, and run. Send him to join his beloved brother and be glad the gods
made seven hells. One would never be enough to hold both of the Cleganes. He pushed himself
awkwardly to his feet. Beric Dondarrion is a different matter. Should you capture him, hold him
for my return. Ill want to march him back to Kings Landing with a rope about his neck, and
have Ser Ilyn take his head off where half the realm can see.
And this Myrish priest who runs with him? It is said he spreads his false faith everywhere.
Kill him, kiss him, or pray with him, as you please.
I have no wish to kiss the man, my lord.
No doubt hed say the same of you. Jaimes smile turned into a yawn. My pardons. I shall
take my leave of you, if you have no objections.
None, my lord, said Hasty. No doubt he wished to pray.
Jaime wished to fight. He took the steps two at a time, out to where the night air was cold and
crisp. In the torchlit yard Strongboar and Ser Flement Brax were having at each other whilst a
ring of men-at-arms cheered them on. Ser Lyle will have the best of that one, he knew. I need to
find Ser Ilyn. His fingers had the itch again. His footsteps took him away from the noise and the
light. He passed beneath the covered bridge and through the Flowstone Yard before he realized
where he was headed.
As he neared the bear pit, he saw the glow of a lantern, its pale wintry light washing over the
tiers of steep stone seats. Someone has come before me, it would seem. The pit would be a fine
place to dance; perhaps Ser Ilyn had anticipated him.

But the knight standing over the pit was bigger; a husky, bearded man in a red-and-white
surcoat adorned with griffins. Connington. Whats he doing here? Below, the carcass of the bear
still sprawled upon the sands, though only bones and ragged fur remained, half-buried. Jaime felt
a pang of pity for the beast. At least he died in battle. Ser Ronnet, he called, have you lost
your way? It is a large castle, I know.
Red Ronnet raised his lantern. I wished to see where the bear danced with the maiden not-so-
fair. His beard shone in the light as if it were afire. Jaime could smell wine on his breath. Is it
true the wench fought naked?
Naked? No. He wondered how that wrinkle had been added to the story. The Mummers put
her in a pink silk gown and shoved a tourney sword into her hand. The Goat wanted her death to
be amuthing. Elsewise...
... the sight of Brienne naked might have made the bear flee in terror. Connington laughed.
Jaime did not. You speak as if you know the lady.
I was betrothed to her.
That took him by surprise. Brienne had never mentioned a betrothal. Her father made a match
for her...
Thrice, said Connington. I was the second. My fathers notion. I had heard the wench was
ugly, and I told him so, but he said all women were the same once you blew the candle out.
Your father. Jaime eyed Red Ronnets surcoat, where two griffins faced each other on a field
of red and white. Dancing griffins. Our late Hands... brother, was he?
Cousin. Lord Jon had no brothers.
No. It all came back to him. Jon Connington had been Prince Rhaegars friend. When
Merryweather failed so dismally to contain Roberts Rebellion and Prince Rhaegar could not be
found, Aerys had turned to the next best thing, and raised Connington to the Handship. But the
Mad King was always chopping off his Hands. He had chopped Lord Jon after the Battle of the
Bells, stripping him of honors, lands, and wealth, and packing him off across the sea to die in
exile, where he soon drank himself to death. The cousin, thoughRed Ronnets fatherhad
joined the rebellion and been rewarded with Griffins Roost after the Trident. He only got the
castle, though; Robert kept the gold, and bestowed the greater part of the Connington lands on
more fervent supporters.
Ser Ronnet was a landed knight, no more. For any such, the Maid of Tarth would have been a
sweet plum indeed. How is it that you did not wed? Jaime asked him.
Why, I went to Tarth and saw her. I had six years on her, yet the wench could look me in the
eye. She was a sow in silk, though most sows have bigger teats. When she tried to talk she
almost choked on her own tongue. I gave her a rose and told her it was all that she would ever
have from me. Connington glanced into the pit. The bear was less hairy than that freak, Ill
Jaimes golden hand cracked him across the mouth so hard the other knight went stumbling
down the steps. His lantern fell and smashed, and the oil spread out, burning. You are speaking
of a highborn lady, ser. Call her by her name. Call her Brienne.

Connington edged away from the spreading flames on his hands and knees. Brienne. If it
please my lord. He spat a glob of blood at Jaimes foot. Brienne the Beauty.

CERSEI
It was a slow climb to the top of Visenyas Hill. As the horses labored upward, the queen
leaned back against a plump red cushion. From outside came the voice of Ser Osmund
Kettleblack. Make way. Clear the street. Make way for Her Grace the queen.
Margaery does keep a lively court, Lady Merryweather was saying. We have jugglers,
mummers, poets, puppets...
Singers? prompted Cersei.
Many and more, Your Grace. Hamish the Harper plays for her once a fortnight, and sometimes
Alaric of Eysen will entertain us of an evening, but the Blue Bard is her favorite.
Cersei recalled the bard from Tommens wedding. Young, and fair to look upon. Could there be
something there? There are other men as well, I hear. Knights and courtiers. Admirers. Tell me
true, my lady. Do you think Margaery is still a maiden?
She says she is, Your Grace.
So she does. What do you say?
Taenas black eyes sparkled with mischief. When she wed Lord Renly at Highgarden, I helped
disrobe him for the bedding. His lordship was a well-made man, and lusty. I saw the proof when
we tumbled him into the wedding bed where his bride awaited him as naked as her name day,
blushing prettily beneath the coverlets. Ser Loras had carried her up the steps himself. Margaery
may say that the marriage was never consummated, that Lord Renly had drunk too much wine at
the wedding feast, but I promise you, the bit between his legs was anything but weary when last I
saw it.
Did you chance to see the marriage bed the morning after? Cersei asked. Did she bleed?
No sheet was shown, Your Grace.
A pity. Still, the absence of a bloody sheet meant little, by itself. Common peasant girls bled
like pigs upon their wedding nights, she had heard, but that was less true of highborn maids like
Margaery Tyrell. A lords daughter was more like to give her maidenhead to a horse than a
husband, it was said, and Margaery had been riding since she was old enough to walk. I
understand the little queen has many admirers amongst our household knights. The Redwyne
twins, Ser Tallad... who else, pray tell?
Lady Merryweather gave a shrug. Ser Lambert, the fool who hides a good eye behind a patch.
Bayard Norcross. Courtenay Greenhill. The brothers Woodwright, sometimes Portifer and often
Lucantine. Oh, and Grand Maester Pycelle is a frequent visitor.
Pycelle? Truly? Had that doddering old worm forsaken the lion for the rose? If so, he will
regret it. Who else?
The Summer Islander in his feathered cloak. How could I have forgotten him, with his skin as
black as ink? Others come to pay court to her cousins. Elinor is promised to the Ambrose boy,
but loves to flirt, and Megga has a new suitor every fortnight. Once she kissed a potboy in the
kitchen. I have heard talk of her marrying Lady Bulwers brother, but if Megga were to choose
for herself, she would sooner have Mark Mullendore, I am certain.

Cersei laughed. The butterfly knight who lost his arm on the Blackwater? What good is half a
man?
Megga thinks him sweet. She has asked Lady Margaery to help her find a monkey for him.
A monkey. The queen did not know what to say to that. Sparrows and monkeys. Truly, the
realm is going mad. What of our brave Ser Loras? How often does he call upon his sister?
More than any of the others. When Taena frowned, a tiny crease appeared between her dark
eyes. Every morn and every night he visits, unless duty interferes. Her brother is devoted to her,
they share everything with... oh... For a moment, the Myrish woman looked almost shocked.
Then a smile spread across her face. I have had a most wicked thought, Your Grace.
Best keep it to yourself. The hill is thick with sparrows, and we all know how sparrows abhor
wickedness.
I have heard they abhor soap and water too, Your Grace.
Perhaps too much prayer robs a man of his sense of smell. I shall be sure to ask His High
Holiness.
The draperies swayed back and forth in a wash of crimson silk. Orton told me that the High
Septon has no name, Lady Taena said. Can that be true? In Myr we all have names.
Oh, he had a name once. They all do. The queen waved a hand dismissively. Even septons
born of noble blood go only by their given names once they have taken their vows. When one of
them is elevated to High Septon, he puts aside that name as well. The Faith will tell you he no
longer has any need of a mans name, for he has become the avatar of the gods.
How do you distinguish one High Septon from another?
With difficulty. One has to say, the fat one, or the one before the fat one, or the old one
who died in his sleep. You can always winkle out their birth names if you like, but they take
umbrage if you use them. It reminds them that they were born ordinary men, and they do not like
that.
My lord husband tells me this new one was born with filth beneath his fingernails.
So I suspect. As a rule the Most Devout elevate one of their own, but there have been
exceptions. Grand Maester Pycelle had informed her of the history, at tedious length. During
the reign of King Baelor the Blessed a simple stonemason was chosen as High Septon. He
worked stone so beautifully that Baelor decided he was the Smith reborn in mortal flesh. The
man could neither read nor write, nor recall the words of the simplest of prayers. Some still
claimed that Baelors Hand had the man poisoned to spare the realm embarrassment. After that
one died, an eight-year-old boy was elevated, once more at King Baelors urging. The boy
worked miracles, His Grace declared, though even his little healing hands could not save Baelor
during his final fast.
Lady Merryweather gave a laugh. Eight years old? Perhaps my son could be High Septon. He
is almost seven.
Does he pray a lot? the queen asked.
He prefers to play with swords.
A real boy, then. Can he name all seven gods?

I think so.
I shall have to take him under consideration. Cersei did not doubt that there were any number
of boys who would do more honor to the crystal crown than the wretch on whom the Most
Devout had chosen to bestow it. This is what comes of letting fools and cowards rule themselves.
Next time, I will choose their master for them. And the next time might not be long in coming, if
the new High Septon continued to annoy her. Baelors Hand had little to teach Cersei Lannister
where such matters were concerned.
Clear the way! Ser Osmund Kettleblack was shouting. Make way for the Queens Grace!
The litter began to slow, which could only mean that they were near the top of the hill. You
should bring this son of yours to court, Cersei told Lady Merryweather. Six is not too young.
Tommen needs other boys about him. Why not your son? Joffrey had never had a close friend
of his own age, that she recalled. The poor boy was always alone. I had Jaime when I was a
child... and Melara, until she fell into the well. Joff had been fond of the Hound, to be sure, but
that was not friendship. He was looking for the father he never found in Robert. A little foster
brother might be just what Tommen needs to wean him away from Margaery and her hens. In
time they might grow as close as Robert and his boyhood friend Ned Stark. A fool, but a loyal
fool. Tommen will have need of loyal friends to watch his back.
Your Grace is kind, but Russell has never known any home but Longtable. I fear he would be
lost in this great city.
In the beginning, the queen allowed, but he will soon outgrow that, as I did. When my father
sent for me to court I wept and Jaime raged, until my aunt sat me down in the Stone Garden and
told me there was no one in Kings Landing that I need ever fear. You are a lioness, she said,
and it is for all the lesser beasts to fear you. Your son will find his courage too. Surely you
would prefer to have him close at hand, where you could see him every day? He is your only
child, is he not?
For the present. My lord husband has asked the gods to bless us with another son, in case...
I know. She thought of Joffrey, clawing at his neck. In his last moments he had looked to her
in desperate appeal, and a sudden memory had stopped her heart; a drop of red blood hissing in a
candle flame, a croaking voice that spoke of crowns and shrouds, of death at the hands of the
valonqar.
Outside the litter, Ser Osmund was shouting something, and someone was shouting back. The
litter jerked to a halt. Are you all dead? roared Kettleblack. Get out of the bloody way!
The queen pulled back a corner of the curtain and beckoned to Ser Meryn Trant. What seems
to be the trouble?
The sparrows, Your Grace. Ser Meryn wore white scale armor beneath his cloak. His helm
and shield were slung from his saddle. Camping in the street. Well make them move.
Do that, but gently. I do not care to be caught up in another riot. Cersei let the curtain fall.
This is absurd.
It is, Your Grace, Lady Merryweather agreed. The High Septon should have come to you.
And these wretched sparrows...

He feeds them, coddles them, blesses them. Yet will not bless the king. The blessing was an
empty ritual, she knew, but rituals and ceremonies had power in the eyes of the ignorant. Aegon
the Conqueror himself had dated the start of his realm from the day the High Septon anointed
him in Oldtown. This wretched priest will obey, or learn how weak and human he still is.
Orton says it is the gold he really wants. That he means to withhold his blessing until the
crown resumes its payments.
The Faith will have its gold as soon as we have peace. Septon Torbert and Septon Raynard
had been most understanding of her plight... unlike the wretched Braavosi, who had hounded
poor Lord Gyles so mercilessly that he had taken to his bed, coughing up blood. We had to have
those ships. She could not rely upon the Arbor for her navy; the Redwynes were too close to the
Tyrells. She needed her own strength at sea.
The dromonds rising on the river would give her that. Her flagship would dip twice as many
oars as King Roberts Hammer. Aurane had asked her leave to name her Lord Tywin, which
Cersei had been pleased to grant. She looked forward to hearing men speak of her father as a
she. Another of the ships would be named Sweet Cersei, and would bear a gilded figurehead
carved in her likeness, clad in mail and lion helm, with spear in hand. Brave Joffrey, Lady
Joanna, and Lioness would follow her to sea, along with Queen Margaery, Golden Rose, Lord
Renly, Lady Olenna, and Princess Myrcella. The queen had made the mistake of telling Tommen
he might name the last five. He had actually chosen Moon Boy for one. Only when Lord Aurane
suggested that men might not want to serve on a ship named for a fool had the boy reluctantly
agreed to honor his sister instead.
If this ragged septon thinks to make me buy Tommens blessing, he will soon learn better,
she told Taena. The queen did not intend to truckle to a pack of priests.
The litter halted yet again, so suddenly that Cersei jerked. Oh, this is infuriating. She leaned
out once more, and saw that they had reached the top of Visenyas Hill. Ahead loomed the Great
Sept of Baelor, with its magnificent dome and seven shining towers, but between her and the
marble steps lay a sullen sea of humanity, brown and ragged and unwashed. Sparrows, she
thought, sniffing, though no sparrows had ever smelled so rank.
Cersei was appalled. Qyburn had brought her reports of their numbers, but hearing about them
was one thing and seeing them another. Hundreds were encamped upon the plaza, hundreds more
in the gardens. Their cookfires filled the air with smoke and stinks. Roughspun tents and
miserable hovels made of mud and scrap wood besmirched the pristine white marble. They were
even huddled on the steps, beneath the Great Septs towering doors.
Ser Osmund came trotting back to her. Beside him rode Ser Osfryd, mounted on a stallion as
golden as his cloak. Osfryd was the middle Kettleblack, quieter than his siblings, more apt to
scowl than smile. And crueler as well, if the tales are true. Perhaps I should have sent him to the
Wall.
Grand Maester Pycelle had wanted an older man more seasoned in the ways of war to
command the gold cloaks, and several of her other councillors had agreed with him. Ser Osfryd
is seasoned quite sufficiently, she had told them, but even that did not shut them up. They yap at

me like a pack of small, annoying dogs. Her patience with Pycelle had all but run its course. He
had even had the temerity to object to her sending to Dorne for a master-at-arms, on the grounds
that it might offend the Tyrells. Why do you think Im doing it? she had asked him scornfully.
Beg pardon, Your Grace, said Ser Osmund. My brothers summoning more gold cloaks.
Well clear a path, never fear.
I do not have the time. I will continue on afoot.
Please, Your Grace. Taena caught her arm. They frighten me. There are hundreds of them,
and so dirty.
Cersei kissed her cheek. The lion does not fear the sparrow... but it is good of you to care. I
know you love me well, my lady. Ser Osmund, kindly help me down.
If I had known I was going to have to walk, I would have dressed for it. She wore a white gown
slashed with cloth-of-gold, lacy but demure. It had been several years since the last time she had
donned it, and the queen found it uncomfortably tight about the middle. Ser Osmund, Ser
Meryn, you will accompany me. Ser Osfryd, see that my litter comes to no harm. Some of the
sparrows looked gaunt and hollow-eyed enough to eat her horses.
As she made her way through the ragged throng, past their cookfires, wagons, and crude
shelters, the queen found herself remembering another crowd that had once gathered on this
plaza. The day she wed Robert Baratheon, thousands had turned out to cheer for them. All the
women wore their best, and half the men had children on their shoulders. When she had emerged
from inside the sept, hand in hand with the young king, the crowd sent up a roar so loud it could
be heard in Lannisport. They like you well, my lady, Robert whispered in her ear. See, every
face is smiling. For that one short moment she had been happy in her marriage... until she
chanced to glance at Jaime. No, she remembered thinking, not every face, my lord.
No one was smiling now. The looks the sparrows gave her were dull, sullen, hostile. They made
way but reluctantly. If they were truly sparrows, a shout would send them flying. A hundred gold
cloaks with staves and swords and maces could clear this rabble quick enough. That was what
Lord Tywin would have done. He would have ridden over them instead of walking through.
When she saw what they had done to Baelor the Beloved, the queen had cause to rue her soft
heart. The great marble statue that had smiled serenely over the plaza for a hundred years was
waist-deep in a heap of bones and skulls. Some of the skulls had scraps of flesh still clinging to
them. A crow sat atop one such, enjoying a dry, leathery feast. Flies were everywhere. What is
the meaning of this? Cersei demanded of the crowd. Do you mean to bury Blessed Baelor in a
mountain of carrion?
A one-legged man stepped forward, leaning on a wooden crutch. Your Grace, these are the
bones of holy men and women, murdered for their faith. Septons, septas, brothers brown and dun
and green, sisters white and blue and grey. Some were hanged, some disemboweled. Septs have
been despoiled, maidens and mothers raped by godless men and demon worshipers. Even silent
sisters have been molested. The Mother Above cries out in her anguish. We have brought their
bones here from all over the realm, to bear witness to the agony of the Holy Faith.

Cersei could feel the weight of eyes upon her. The king shall know of these atrocities, she
answered solemnly. Tommen will share your outrage. This is the work of Stannis and his red
witch, and the savage northmen who worship trees and wolves. She raised her voice. Good
people, your dead shall be avenged!
A few cheered, but only a few. We ask no vengeance for our dead, said the one-legged man,
only protection for the living. For the septs and holy places.
The Iron Throne must defend the Faith, growled a hulking lout with a seven-pointed star
painted on his brow. A king who does not protect his people is no king at all. Mutters of assent
went up from those around him. One man had the temerity to grasp Ser Meryn by the wrist, and
say, It is time for all anointed knights to forsake their worldly masters and defend our Holy
Faith. Stand with us, ser, if you love the Seven.
Unhand me, said Ser Meryn, wrenching free.
I hear you, Cersei said. My son is young, but he loves the Seven well. You shall have his
protection, and mine own.
The man with the star upon his brow was not appeased. The Warrior will defend us, he said,
not this fat boy king.
Meryn Trant reached for his sword, but Cersei stopped him before he could unsheathe it. She
had only two knights amidst a sea of sparrows. She saw staves and scythes, cudgels and clubs,
several axes. I will have no blood shed in this holy place, ser. Why are all men such children?
Cut him down, and the rest will tear us limb from limb. We are all the Mothers children. Come,
His High Holiness awaits us. But as she made her way through the press to the steps of the sept,
a gaggle of armed men stepped out to block the doors. They wore mail and boiled leather, with
here and there a bit of dinted plate. Some had spears and some had longswords. More favored
axes, and had sewn red stars upon their bleached white surcoats. Two had the insolence to cross
their spears and bar her way.
Is this how you receive your queen? she demanded of them. Pray, where are Raynard and
Torbert? It was not like those two to miss a chance to fawn on her. Torbert always made a show
of getting down on his knees to wash her feet.
I do not know the men you speak of, said one of the men with a red star on his surcoat, but if
they are of the Faith, no doubt the Seven had need of their service.
Septon Raynard and Septon Torbert are of the Most Devout, Cersei said, and will be furious
to learn that you obstructed me. Do you mean to deny me entrance to Baelors holy sept?
Your Grace, said a greybeard with a stooped shoulder. You are welcome here, but your men
must leave their swordbelts. No weapons are allowed within, by command of the High Septon.
Knights of the Kingsguard do not set aside their swords, not even in the presence of the king.
In the kings house, the kings word must rule, replied the aged knight, but this is the house
of the gods.
Color rose to her cheeks. One word to Meryn Trant, and the stoop-backed greybeard would be
meeting his gods sooner than he might have liked. Not here, though. Not now. Wait for me,
she told the Kingsguard curtly. Alone, she climbed the steps. The spearmen uncrossed their

spears. Two other men put their weight against the doors, and with a great groan they swung
apart.
In the Hall of Lamps, Cersei found a score of septons on their knees, but not in prayer. They
had pails of soap and water, and were scrubbing at the floor. Their roughspun robes and sandals
led Cersei to take them for sparrows, until one raised his head. His face was red as a beet, and
there were broken blisters on his hands, bleeding. Your Grace.
Septon Raynard? The queen could scarce believe what she was seeing. What are you doing
on your knees?
He is cleaning the floor. The speaker was shorter than the queen by several inches and as thin
as a broom handle. Work is a form of prayer, most pleasing to the Smith. He stood, scrub
brush in hand. Your Grace. We have been expecting you.
The mans beard was grey and brown and closely trimmed, his hair tied up in a hard knot
behind his head. Though his robes were clean, they were frayed and patched as well. He had
rolled his sleeves up his elbows as he scrubbed, but below the knees the cloth was soaked and
sodden. His face was sharply pointed, with deep-set eyes as brown as mud. His feet are bare, she
saw with dismay. They were hideous as well, hard and horny things, thick with callus. You are
His High Holiness?
We are.
Father, give me strength. The queen knew that she should kneel, but the floor was wet with
soap and dirty water and she did not wish to ruin her gown. She glanced over at the old men on
their knees. I do not see my friend Septon Torbert.
Septon Torbert has been confined to a penitents cell on bread and water. It is sinful for any
man to be so plump when half the realm is starving.
Cersei had suffered quite enough for one day. She let him see her anger. Is this how you greet
me? With a scrub brush in your hand, dripping water? Do you know who I am?
Your Grace is the Queen Regent of the Seven Kingdoms, the man said, but in The Seven-
Pointed Star it is written that as men bow to their lords, and lords to their kings, so kings and
queens must bow before the Seven Who Are One.
Is he telling me to kneel? If so, he did not know her very well. By rights you should have met
me on the steps in your finest robes, with the crystal crown upon your head.
We have no crown, Your Grace.
Her frown deepened. My lord father gave your predecessor a crown of rare beauty, wrought in
crystal and spun gold.
And for that gift we honor him in our prayers, the High Septon said, but the poor need food
in their bellies more than we need gold and crystal on our head. That crown has been sold. So
have the others in our vaults, and all our rings, and our robes of cloth-of-gold and cloth-of-silver.
Wool will keep a man as warm. That is why the Seven gave us sheep.
He is utterly mad. The Most Devout must have been mad as well, to elevate this creature... mad,
or terrified of the beggars at their doors. Qyburns whisperers claimed that Septon Luceon had

been nine votes from elevation when those doors had given way, and the sparrows came pouring
into the Great Sept with their leader on their shoulders and their axes in their hands.
She fixed the small man with an icy stare. Is there someplace where we may speak more
privily, Your Holiness?
The High Septon surrendered his scrub brush to one of the Most Devout. If Your Grace will
follow us?
He led her through the inner doors, into the sept proper. Their footsteps echoed off the marble
floor. Dust motes swam in the beams of colored light slanting down through the leaded glass of
the great dome. Incense sweetened the air, and beside the seven altars candles shone like stars. A
thousand twinkled for the Mother and near as many for the Maid, but you could count the
Strangers candles on two hands and still have fingers left.
Even here the sparrows had invaded. A dozen scruffy hedge knights were kneeling before the
Warrior, beseeching him to bless the swords they had piled at his feet. At the Mothers altar, a
septon was leading a hundred sparrows in prayer, their voices as distant as waves upon the shore.
The High Septon led Cersei to where the Crone raised her lantern. When he knelt before the
altar, she had no choice but to kneel beside him. Mercifully, this High Septon was not as long-
winded as the fat one had been. I should be grateful for that much, I suppose.
His High Holiness made no move to rise when his prayer was done. It would seem they must
confer upon their knees. A small mans ploy, she thought, amused. High Holiness, she said,
these sparrows are frightening the city. I want them gone.
Where should they go, Your Grace?
There are seven hells, any one of them will serve. Back where they came from, I would
imagine.
They came from everywhere. As the sparrow is the humblest and most common of the birds,
they are the humblest and most common of men.
They are common, we agree on that much. Have you seen what they have done to Blessed
Baelors statue? They befoul the plaza with their pigs and goats and night soil.
Night soil can be washed away more easily than blood, Your Grace. If the plaza was befouled,
it was befouled by the execution that was done here.
He dares throw Ned Stark in my face? We all regret that. Joffrey was young, and not as wise
as he might have been. Lord Stark should have been beheaded elsewhere, out of respect for
Blessed Baelor... but the man was a traitor, let us not forget.
King Baelor forgave those who conspired against him.
King Baelor imprisoned his own sisters, whose only crime was being beautiful. The first time
Cersei heard that tale, she had gone to Tyrions nursery and pinched the little monster till he
cried. I should have pinched his nose shut and stuffed my sock into his mouth. She forced herself
to smile. King Tommen will forgive the sparrows too, once they have returned to their homes.
Most have lost their homes. Suffering is everywhere... and grief, and death. Before coming to
Kings Landing, I tended to half a hundred little villages too small to have a septon of their own.
I walked from each one to the next, performing marriages, absolving sinners of their sins,

naming newborn children. Those villages are no more, Your Grace. Weeds and thorns grow
where gardens once flourished, and bones litter the roadsides.
War is a dreadful thing. These atrocities are the work of the northmen, and of Lord Stannis and
his demon-worshipers.
Some of my sparrows speak of bands of lions who despoiled them... and of the Hound, who
was your own sworn man. At Saltpans he slew an aged septon and despoiled a girl of twelve, an
innocent child promised to the Faith. He wore his armor as he raped her and her tender flesh was
torn and crushed by his iron mail. When he was done he gave her to his men, who cut off her
nose and nipples.
His Grace cannot be held responsible for the crimes of every man who ever served House
Lannister. Sandor Clegane is a traitor and a brute. Why do you think I dismissed him from our
service? He fights for the outlaw Beric Dondarrion now, not for King Tommen.
As you say. Yet it must be askedwhere were the kings knights when these things were
being done? Did not Jaehaerys the Conciliator once swear upon the Iron Throne itself that the
crown would always protect and defend the Faith?
Cersei had no idea what Jaehaerys the Conciliator might have sworn. He did, she agreed,
and the High Septon blessed him and anointed him as king. It is traditional for every new High
Septon to give the king his blessing... and yet you have refused to bless King Tommen.
Your Grace is mistaken. We have not refused.
You have not come.
The hour is not yet ripe.
Are you a priest or a greengrocer? And what might I do to make it... riper? If he dares
mention gold, I will deal with this one as I did the last and find a pious eight-year-old to wear the
crystal crown.
The realm is full of kings. For the Faith to exalt one above the rest we must be certain. Three
hundred years ago, when Aegon the Dragon landed beneath this very hill, the High Septon
locked himself within the Starry Sept of Oldtown and prayed for seven days and seven nights,
taking no nourishment but bread and water. When he emerged he announced that the Faith would
not oppose Aegon and his sisters, for the Crone had lifted up her lamp to show him what lay
ahead. If Oldtown took up arms against the Dragon, Oldtown would burn, and the Hightower and
the Citadel and the Starry Sept would be cast down and destroyed. Lord Hightower was a godly
man. When he heard the prophecy, he kept his strength at home and opened the city gates to
Aegon when he came. And His High Holiness anointed the Conqueror with the seven oils. I must
do as he did, three hundred years ago. I must pray, and fast.
For seven days and seven nights?
For as long as need be.
Cersei itched to slap his solemn, pious face. I could help you fast, she thought. I could shut you
up in some tower and see that no one brings you food until the gods have spoken. These false
kings espouse false gods, she reminded him. Only King Tommen defends the Holy Faith.

Yet everywhere septs are burned and looted. Even silent sisters have been raped, crying their
anguish to the sky. Your Grace has seen the bones and skulls of our holy dead?
I have, she had to say. Give Tommen your blessing, and he shall put an end to these
outrages.
And how shall he do that, Your Grace? Will he send a knight to walk the roads with every
begging brother? Will he give us men to guard our septas against the wolves and lions?
I will pretend you did not mention lions. The realm is at war. His Grace has need of every
man. Cersei did not intend to squander Tommens strength playing wet nurse to sparrows, or
guarding the wrinkled cunts of a thousand sour septas. Half of them are probably praying for a
good raping. Your sparrows have clubs and axes. Let them defend themselves.
King Maegors laws prohibit that, as Your Grace must know. It was by his decree that the
Faith laid down its swords.
Tommen is king now, not Maegor. What did she care what Maegor the Cruel had decreed
three hundred years ago? Instead of taking the swords out of the hands of the faithful, he should
have used them for his own ends. She pointed to where the Warrior stood above his altar of red
marble. What is that he holds?
A sword.
Has he forgotten how to use it?
Maegors laws
could be undone. She let that hang there, waiting for the High Sparrow to rise to the bait.
He did not disappoint her. The Faith Militant reborn... that would be the answer to three
hundred years of prayer, Your Grace. The Warrior would lift his shining sword again and cleanse
this sinful realm of all its evil. If His Grace were to allow me to restore the ancient blessed orders
of the Sword and Star, every godly man in the Seven Kingdoms would know him to be our true
and rightful lord.
That was sweet to hear, but Cersei took care not to seem too eager. Your High Holiness spoke
of forgiveness earlier. In these troubled times, King Tommen would be most grateful if you
could see your way to forgiving the crowns debt. It seems to me we owe the Faith some nine
hundred thousand dragons.
Nine hundred thousand six hundred and seventy-four dragons. Gold that could feed the hungry
and rebuild a thousand septs.
Is it gold you want? the queen asked. Or do you want these dusty laws of Maegors set
aside?
The High Septon pondered that a moment. As you wish. This debt shall be forgiven, and King
Tommen will have his blessing. The Warriors Sons shall escort me to him, shining in the glory
of their Faith, whilst my sparrows go forth to defend the meek and humble of the land, reborn as
Poor Fellows as of old.
The queen got to her feet and smoothed her skirts. I shall have the papers drawn up, and His
Grace will sign them and affix them with the royal seal. If there was one part of kingship that
Tommen loved, it was playing with his seal.

Seven save His Grace. Long may he reign. The High Septon made a steeple of his hands and
raised his eyes to heaven. Let the wicked tremble!
Do you hear that, Lord Stannis? Cersei could not help but smile. Even her lord father could
have done no better. At a stroke, she had rid Kings Landing of the plague of sparrows, secured
Tommens blessing, and lessened the crowns debt by close to a million dragons. Her heart was
soaring as she allowed the High Septon to escort her back to the Hall of Lamps.
Lady Merryweather shared the queens delight, though she had never heard of the Warriors
Sons or the Poor Fellows. They date from before Aegons Conquest, Cersei explained to her.
The Warriors Sons were an order of knights who gave up their lands and gold and swore their
swords to His High Holiness. The Poor Fellows... they were humbler, though far more numerous.
Begging brothers of a sort, though they carried axes instead of bowls. They wandered the roads,
escorting travelers from sept to sept and town to town. Their badge was the seven-pointed star,
red on white, so the smallfolk named them Stars. The Warriors Sons wore rainbow cloaks and
inlaid silver armor over hair shirts, and bore star-shaped crystals in the pommels of their
longswords. They were the Swords. Holy men, ascetics, fanatics, sorcerers, dragonslayers,
demonhunters... there were many tales about them. But all agree that they were implacable in
their hatred for all enemies of the Holy Faith.
Lady Merryweather understood at once. Enemies such as Lord Stannis and his red sorceress,
perhaps?
Why, yes, as it happens, said Cersei, giggling like a girl. Shall we broach a flagon of
hippocras and drink to the fervor of the Warriors Sons on our way home?
To the fervor of the Warriors Sons and the brilliance of the Queen Regent. To Cersei, the
First of Her Name!
The hippocras was as sweet and savory as Cerseis triumph, and the queens litter seemed
almost to float back across the city. But at the base of Aegons High Hill, they encountered
Margaery Tyrell and her cousins returning from a ride. She dogs me everywhere I go, Cersei
thought with annoyance when she laid eyes on the little queen.
Behind Margaery came a long tail of courtiers, guards, and servants, many of them laden with
baskets of fresh flowers. Each of her cousins had an admirer in thrall; the gangly squire Alyn
Ambrose rode with Elinor, to whom he was betrothed, Ser Tallad with shy Alla, one-armed Mark
Mullendore with Megga, plump and laughing. The Redwyne twins were escorting two of
Margaerys other ladies, Meredyth Crane and Janna Fossoway. The women all wore flowers in
their hair. Jalabhar Xho had attached himself to the party too, as had Ser Lambert Turnberry with
his eye patch, and the handsome singer known as the Blue Bard.
And of course a knight of the Kingsguard must accompany the little queen, and of course it is
the Knight of Flowers. In white scale armor chased with gold, Ser Loras glittered. Though he no
longer presumed to train Tommen at arms, the king still spent far too much time in his company.
Every time the boy returned from an afternoon with his little wife, he had some new tale to tell
about something that Ser Loras had said or done.

Margaery hailed them when the two columns met and fell in beside the queens litter. Her
cheeks were flushed, her brown ringlets tumbling loosely about her shoulders, stirred by every
puff of wind. We have been picking autumn flowers in the kingswood, she told them.
I know where you were, the queen thought. Her informers were very good about keeping her
apprised of Margaerys movements. Such a restless girl, our little queen. She seldom let more
than three days pass without going off for a ride. Some days they would ride along the Rosby
road to hunt for shells and eat beside the sea. Other times she would take her entourage across
the river for an afternoon of hawking. The little queen was fond of going out on boats as well,
sailing up and down the Blackwater Rush to no particular purpose. When she was feeling pious
she would leave the castle to pray at Baelors Sept. She gave her custom to a dozen different
seamstresses, was well-known amongst the citys goldsmiths, and had even been known to visit
the fish market by the Mud Gate for a look at the days catch. Wherever she went, the smallfolk
fawned on her, and Lady Margaery did all she could to fan their ardor. She was forever giving
alms to beggars, buying hot pies off bakers carts, and reining up to speak to common tradesmen.
Had it been up to her, she would have had Tommen doing all these things as well. She was
forever inviting him to accompany her and her hens on their adventures, and the boy was forever
pleading with his mother for leave to go along. The queen had given her consent a few times, if
only to allow Ser Osney to spend a few more hours in Margaerys company. For all the good it
has done. Osney has proved a grievous disappointment. Do you remember the day your sister
sailed for Dorne? Cersei asked her son. Do you recall the mob howling on our way back to the
castle? The stones, the curses?
But the king was deaf to sense, thanks to his little queen. If we mingle with the commons, they
will love us better.
The mob loved the fat High Septon so well they tore him limb from limb, and him a holy
man, she reminded him. All it did was make him sullen with her. Just as Margaery wants, I
wager. Every day in every way she tries to steal him from me. Joffrey would have seen through
her schemers smile and let her know her place, but Tommen was more gullible. She knew Joff
was too strong for her, Cersei thought, remembering the gold coin Qyburn had found. For House
Tyrell to hope to rule, he had to be removed. It came back to her that Margaery and her hideous
grandmother had once plotted to marry Sansa Stark to the little queens crippled brother Willas.
Lord Tywin had forestalled that by stealing a march on them and wedding Sansa to Tyrion, but
the link had been there. They are all in it together, she realized with a start. The Tyrells bribed
the gaolers to free Tyrion, and whisked him down the roseroad to join his vile bride. By now the
both of them are safe in Highgarden, hidden away behind a wall of roses.
You should have come along with us, Your Grace, the little schemer prattled on as they
climbed the slope of Aegons High Hill. We could have had such a lovely time together. The
trees are gowned in gold and red and orange, and there are flowers everywhere. Chestnuts too.
We roasted some on our way home.
I have no time for riding through the woods and picking flowers, Cersei said. I have a
kingdom to rule.

Only one, Your Grace? Who rules the other six? Margaery laughed a merry little laugh. You
will forgive me my jest, I hope. I know what a burden you bear. You should let me share the
load. There must be some things I could do to help you. It would put to rest all this talk that you
and I are rivals for the king.
Is that what they say? Cersei smiled. How foolish. I have never looked upon you as a rival,
not even for a moment.
I am so pleased to hear that. The girl did not seem to realize that she had been cut. You and
Tommen must come with us the next time. I know His Grace would love it. The Blue Bard
played for us, and Ser Tallad showed us how to fight with a staff the way the smallfolk do. The
woods are so beautiful in autumn.
My late husband loved the forest too. In the early years of their marriage, Robert was forever
imploring her to hunt with him, but Cersei had always begged off. His hunting trips allowed her
time with Jaime. Golden days and silver nights. It was a dangerous dance that they had danced,
to be sure. Eyes and ears were everywhere within the Red Keep, and one could never be certain
when Robert would return. Somehow the peril had only served to make their times together that
much more thrilling. Still, beauty can sometimes mask deadly danger, she warned the little
queen. Robert lost his life in the woods.
Margaery smiled at Ser Loras; a sweet sisterly smile, full of fondness. Your Grace is kind to
fear for me, but my brother keeps me well protected.
Go and hunt, Cersei had urged Robert, half a hundred times. My brother keeps me well
protected. She recalled what Taena had told her earlier, and a laugh came bursting from her lips.
Your Grace laughs so prettily. Lady Margaery gave her a quizzical smile. Might we share
the jest?
You will, the queen said. I promise you, you will.

THE REAVER
The drums were pounding out a battle beat as the Iron Victory swept forward, her ram
cutting through the choppy green waters. The smaller ship ahead was turning, oars slapping at
the sea. Roses streamed upon her banners; fore and aft a white rose upon a red escutcheon, atop
her mast a golden one on a field as green as grass. The Iron Victory raked her side so hard that
half the boarding party lost their feet. Oars snapped and splintered, sweet music to the captains
ears.
He vaulted over the gunwale, landing on the deck below with his golden cloak billowing behind
him. The white roses drew back, as men always did at the sight of Victarion Greyjoy armed and
armored, his face hidden behind his kraken helm. They were clutching swords and spears and
axes, but nine of every ten wore no armor, and the tenth had only a shirt of sewn scales. These
are no ironmen, Victarion thought. They still fear drowning.
Get him! one man shouted. Hes alone!
COME! he roared back. Come kill me, if you can.
From all sides the rosey warriors converged, with grey steel in their hands and terror behind
their eyes. Their fear was so ripe Victarion could taste it. Left and right he laid about, hewing off
the first mans arm at the elbow, cleaving through the shoulder of the second. The third buried
his own axehead in the soft pine of Victarions shield. He slammed it into the fools face,
knocked him off his feet, and slew him when he tried to rise again. As he was struggling to free
his axe from the dead mans rib cage, a spear jabbed him between the shoulder blades. It felt as
though someone had slapped him on the back. Victarion spun and slammed his axe down onto
the spearmans head, feeling the impact in his arm as the steel went crunching through helm and
hair and skull. The man swayed for half a heartbeat, till the iron captain wrenched the steel free
and sent his corpse staggering loose-limbed across the deck, looking more drunk than dead.
By then his ironborn had followed him down onto the deck of the broken longship. He heard
Wulfe One-Ear let out a howl as he went to work, glimpsed Ragnor Pyke in his rusted mail, saw
Nute the Barber send a throwing axe spinning through the air to catch a man in the chest.
Victarion slew another man, and another. He would have killed a third, but Ragnor cut him down
first. Well struck, Victarion bellowed at him.
When he turned to find the next victim for his axe, he spied the other captain across the deck.
His white surcoat was spotted with blood and gore, but Victarion could make out the arms upon
his breast, the white rose within its red escutcheon. The man bore the same device upon his
shield, on a white field with a red embattled border. You! the iron captain called across the
carnage. You of the rose! Be you the lord of Southshield?
The other raised his visor to show a beardless face. His son and heir. Ser Talbert Serry. And
who are you, kraken?
Your death. Victarion bulled toward him.
Serry leapt to meet him. His longsword was good castle-forged steel, and the young knight
made it sing. His first cut was low, and Victarion deflected it off his axe. His second caught the

iron captain on the helm before he got his shield up. Victarion answered with a sidearm blow of
his axe. Serrys shield got in the way. Wooden splinters flew, and the white rose split lengthwise
with a sweet sharp crack. The young knights longsword hammered at his thigh, once, twice,
thrice, screaming against the steel. This boy is quick, the iron captain realized. He smashed his
shield in Serrys face and sent him staggering back against the gunwale. Victarion raised his axe
and put all his weight behind his cut, to open the boy from neck to groin, but Serry spun away.
The axehead crashed through the rail, sending splinters flying, and lodged there when he tried to
pull it free. The deck moved under his feet, and he stumbled to one knee.
Ser Talbert cast away his broken shield and slashed down with his longsword. Victarions own
shield had twisted half around when he stumbled. He caught Serrys blade in an iron fist.
Lobstered steel crunched, and a stab of pain made him grunt, yet Victarion held on. I am quick
as well, boy, he said as he ripped the sword from the knights hand and flung it into the sea.
Ser Talberts eyes went wide. My sword...
Victarion caught the lad about the throat with a bloody fist. Go and get it, he said, forcing
him backwards over the side into the bloodstained waters.
That won him a respite to pull his axe loose. The white roses were falling back before the iron
tide. Some tried to flee belowdecks, as others cried for quarter. Victarion could feel warm blood
trickling down his fingers beneath the mail and leather and lobstered plate, but that was nothing.
Around the mast a thick knot of foemen fought on, standing shoulder to shoulder in a ring. These
few are men, at least. They would sooner die than yield. Victarion would grant some of them that
wish. He beat his axe against his shield and charged them.
The Drowned God had not shaped Victarion Greyjoy to fight with words at kingsmoots, nor
struggle against furtive sneaking foes in endless bogs. This was why he had been put on earth; to
stand steel-clad with an axe red and dripping in his hand, dealing death with every blow.
They hacked at him from front and back, but their swords might have been willow switches for
all the harm they did him. No blade could cut through Victarion Greyjoys heavy plate, nor did
he give his foes the time to find the weak points at the joints, where only mail and leather warded
him. Let three men assail him, or four, or five; it made no matter. He slew them one at a time,
trusting in his steel to protect him from the others. As each foe fell he turned his wroth upon the
next.
The last man to face him must have been a smith; he had shoulders like a bull, and one much
more muscular than the other. His armor was a studded brigandine and a cap of boiled leather.
The only blow he landed completed the ruin of Victarions shield, but the cut the captain dealt in
answer split his head in two. Would that I could deal with the Crows Eye as simply. When he
jerked his axehead free again, the smiths skull seemed to burst. Bone and blood and brain went
everywhere, and the corpse fell forward, up against his legs. Too late to plead for quarter now,
Victarion thought as he untangled himself from the dead man.
By then the deck was slick beneath his feet, and the dead and the dying lay in heaps on every
side. He threw his shield away and sucked in air. Lord Captain, he heard the Barber say beside
him, the day is ours.

All around the sea was full of ships. Some were burning, some were sinking, some had been
smashed to splinters. Between the hulls the water was thick as stew, full of corpses, broken oars,
and men clinging to the wreckage. In the distance, half a dozen of southron longships were
racing back toward the Mander. Let them go, Victarion thought, let them tell the tale. Once a
man had turned his tail and run from battle he ceased to be a man.
His eyes were stinging from the sweat that had run down into them during the fight. Two of his
oarsmen helped undo his kraken helm so he might lift it off. Victarion mopped at his brow. That
knight, he grumbled, the knight of the white rose. Did any of you pull him out? A lords son
would be worth a goodly ransom; from his father, if Lord Serry had survived the day. From his
liege at Highgarden, if not.
None of his men had seen what became of the knight after he went over the side, however.
Most like the man had drowned. May he feast as he fought, in the Drowned Gods watery
halls. Though the men of the Shield Islands called themselves sailors, they crossed the seas in
dread and went lightly clad in battle for fear of drowning. Young Serry had been different. A
brave man, thought Victarion. Almost ironborn.
He gave the captured ship to Ragnor Pyke, named a dozen men to crew her, and clambered
back up onto his own Iron Victory. Strip the captives of arms and armor and have their wounds
bound up, he told Nute the Barber. Throw the dying in the sea. If any beg for mercy, cut their
throats first. He had only contempt for such; better to drown on seawater than on blood. I want
a count of the ships we won and all the knights and lordlings we took captive. I want their
banners too. One day he would hang them in his hall, so when he grew old and feeble he could
remember all the foes he had slain when he was young and strong.
It will be done. Nute grinned. It is a great victory.
Aye, he thought, a great victory for the Crows Eye and his wizards. The other captains would
shout his brothers name anew when the tidings reached Oakenshield. Euron had seduced them
with his glib tongue and smiling eye and bound them to his cause with the plunder of half a
hundred distant lands; gold and silver, ornate armor, curved swords with gilded pommels,
daggers of Valyrian steel, striped tiger pelts and the skins of spotted cats, jade manticores and
ancient Valyrian sphinxes, chests of nutmeg, cloves, and saffron, ivory tusks and the horns of
unicorns, green and orange and yellow feathers from the Summer Sea, bolts of fine silk and
shimmering samite... and yet all that was little and less, compared to this. Now he has given them
conquest, and they are his for good and all, the captain thought. The taste was bitter on his
tongue. This was my victory, not his. Where was he? Back on Oakenshield, lazing in a castle. He
stole my wife and he stole my throne, and now he steals my glory.
Obedience came naturally to Victarion Greyjoy; he had been born to it. Growing to manhood in
the shadow of his brothers, he had followed Balon dutifully in everything he did. Later, when
Balons sons were born, he had grown to accept that one day he would kneel to them as well,
when one of them took his fathers place upon the Seastone Chair. But the Drowned God had
summoned Balon and his sons down to his watery halls, and Victarion could not call Euron
king without tasting bile in his throat.

The wind was freshening, and his thirst was raging. After a battle he always wanted wine. He
gave the deck to Nute and went below. In his cramped cabin aft, he found the dusky woman wet
and ready; perhaps the battle had warmed her blood as well. He took her twice, in quick
succession. When they were done there was blood smeared across her breasts and thighs and
belly, but it was his blood, from the gash in his palm. The dusky woman washed it out for him
with boiled vinegar.
The plan was good, I grant him, Victarion said as she knelt beside him. The Mander is open
to us now, as it was of old. It was a lazy river, wide and slow and treacherous with snags and
sandbars. Most seagoing vessels dared not sail beyond Highgarden, but longships with their
shallow draughts could navigate as far upstream as Bitterbridge. In ancient days, the ironborn
had boldly sailed the river road and plundered all along the Mander and its vassal streams... until
the kings of the green hand had armed the fisherfolk on the four small islands off the Manders
mouth and named them his shields.
Two thousand years had passed, but in the watchtowers along their craggy shores, greybeards
still kept the ancient vigil. At the first glimpse of longships the old men would light their beacon
fires, and the call would leap from hill to hill and island to island. Fear! Foes! Raiders! Raiders!
When the fisherfolk saw the fires burning on the high places they would put their nets and plows
aside and take up their swords and axes. Their lords would rush from their castles, attended by
their knights and men-at-arms. Warhorns would echo across the waters, from Greenshield and
Greyshield, Oakenshield and Southshield, and their longships would come sliding out from
moss-covered stone pens along the shores, oars flashing as they swarmed across the straits to seal
the Mander and hound and harry the raiders upriver to their doom.
Euron had sent Torwold Browntooth and the Red Oarsman up the Mander with a dozen swift
longships, so the lords of the Shield Islands would spill forth in pursuit. By the time his main
fleet arrived, only a handful of fighting men remained to defend the isles themselves. The
ironborn had come in on the evening tide, so the glare of the setting sun would keep them hidden
from the greybeards in the watchtowers until it was too late. The wind was at their backs, as it
had been all the way down from Old Wyk. It was whispered about the fleet that Eurons wizards
had much and more to do with that, that the Crows Eye appeased the Storm God with blood
sacrifice. How else would he have dared sail so far to the west, instead of following the shoreline
as was the custom?
The ironborn ran their longships up onto the stony shingles and spilled out into the purple dusk
with steel glimmering in their hands. By then the fires were burning in the high places, but few
remained to take up arms. Greyshield, Greenshield, and Southshield fell before the sun came up.
Oakenshield lasted half a day longer. And when the men of the Four Shields broke off their
pursuit of Torwold and the Red Oarsman and turned downriver, they found the Iron Fleet waiting
at the Manders mouth.
All fell out as Euron said it would, Victarion told the dusky woman as she bound up his hand
with linen. His wizards must have seen it. He had three aboard the Silence, Quellon Humble
had confided in a whisper. Queer men and terrible, they were, but the Crows Eye had made

them slaves. He still needs me to fight his battles, though, Victarion insisted. Wizards may be
well and good, but blood and steel win wars. The vinegar made his wound hurt worse than ever.
He shoved the woman away and closed his fist, glowering. Bring me wine.
He drank in the darkness, brooding on his brother. If I do not strike the blow with mine own
hand, am I still a kinslayer? Victarion feared no man, but the Drowned Gods curse gave him
pause. If another strikes him down at my command, will his blood still stain my hands? Aeron
Damphair would know the answer, but the priest was somewhere back on the Iron Islands, still
hoping to raise the ironborn against their new-crowned king. Nute the Barber can shave a man
with a thrown axe from twenty yards away. And none of Eurons mongrels could stand against
Wulfe One-Ear or Andrik the Unsmiling. Any of them could do it. But what a man can do and
what a man will do are two different things, he knew.
Eurons blasphemies will bring down the Drowned Gods wroth upon us all, Aeron had
prophesied, back on Old Wyk. We must stop him, brother. We are still of Balons blood, are we
not?
So is he, Victarion had said. I like it no more than you, but Euron is the king. Your
kingsmoot raised him up, and you put the driftwood crown upon his head yourself!
I placed the crown upon his head, said the priest, seaweed dripping in his hair, and gladly
will I wrest it off again and crown you in his stead. Only you are strong enough to fight him.
The Drowned God raised him up, Victarion complained. Let the Drowned God cast him
down.
Aeron gave him a baleful look, the look that had been known to sour wells and make women
barren. It was not the god who spoke. Euron is known to keep wizards and foul sorcerers on that
red ship of his. They sent some spell among us, so we could not hear the sea. The captains and
the kings were drunk with all this talk of dragons.
Drunk, and fearful of that horn. You heard the sound it made. It makes no matter. Euron is our
king.
Not mine, the priest declared. The Drowned God helps bold men, not those who cower
below their decks when the storm is rising. If you will not bestir yourself to remove the Crows
Eye from the Seastone Chair, I must take the task upon myself.
How? You have no ships, no swords.
I have my voice, the priest replied, and the god is with me. Mine is the strength of the sea, a
strength the Crows Eye cannot hope to withstand. The waves may break upon the mountain, yet
still they come, wave upon wave, and in the end only pebbles remain where once the mountain
stood. And soon even the pebbles are swept away, to be ground beneath the sea for all eternity.
Pebbles? Victarion grumbled. You are mad if you think to bring the Crows Eye down with
talk of waves and pebbles.
The ironborn shall be waves, the Damphair said. Not the great and lordly, but the simple
folk, tillers of the soil and fishers of the sea. The captains and the kings raised Euron up, but the
common folk shall tear him down. I shall go to Great Wyk, to Harlaw, to Orkmont, to Pyke
itself. In every town and village shall my words be heard. No godless man may sit the Seastone

Chair! He shook his shaggy head and stalked back out into the night. When the sun came up the
next day, Aeron Greyjoy had vanished from Old Wyk. Even his drowned men knew not where.
They said the Crows Eye only laughed when he was told.
But though the priest was gone, his dire warnings lingered. Victarion found himself
remembering Baelor Blacktydes words as well. Balon was mad, Aeron is madder, and Euron is
maddest of them all. The young lord had tried to sail home after the kingsmoot, refusing to
accept Euron as his liege. But the Iron Fleet had closed the bay, the habit of obedience was
rooted deep in Victarion Greyjoy, and Euron wore the driftwood crown. Nightflyer was seized,
Lord Blacktyde delivered to the king in chains. Eurons mutes and mongrels had cut him into
seven parts, to feed the seven green land gods he worshiped.
As a reward for his leal service, the new-crowned king had given Victarion the dusky woman,
taken off some slaver bound for Lys. I want none of your leavings, he had told his brother
scornfully, but when the Crows Eye said that the woman would be killed unless he took her, he
had weakened. Her tongue had been torn out, but elsewise she was undamaged, and beautiful
besides, with skin as brown as oiled teak. Yet sometimes when he looked at her, he found
himself remembering the first woman his brother had given him, to make a man of him.
Victarion wanted to use the dusky woman once again, but found himself unable. Fetch me
another skin of wine, he told her, then get out. When she returned with a skin of sour red, the
captain took it up on deck, where he could breathe the clean sea air. He drank half the skin and
poured the rest into the sea for all the men whod died.
The Iron Victory lingered for hours off the mouth of the Mander. As the greater part of the Iron
Fleet got under way for Oakenshield, Victarion kept Grief, Lord Dagon, Iron Wind, and
Maidens Bane about him as a rear guard. They pulled survivors from the sea, and watched
Hardhand sink slowly, dragged under by the wreck that she had rammed. By the time she
vanished beneath the waters Victarion had the count hed asked for. He had lost six ships, and
captured eight-and-thirty. It will serve, he told Nute. To the oars. We return to Lord Hewetts
Town.
His oarsmen bent their backs toward Oakenshield, and the iron captain went belowdecks once
again. I could kill him, he told the dusky woman. Though it is a great sin to kill your king,
and a worse one to kill your brother. He frowned. Asha should have given me her voice. How
could she have ever hoped to win the captains and the kings, her with her pinecones and her
turnips? Balons blood is in her, but she is still a woman. She had run after the kingsmoot. The
night the driftwood crown was placed on Eurons head, she and her crew had melted away. Some
small part of Victarion was glad she had. If the girl keeps her wits about her, she will wed some
northern lord and live with him in his castle, far from the sea and Euron Crows Eye.
Lord Hewetts Town, Lord Captain, a crewman called.
Victarion rose. The wine had dulled the throbbing in his hand. Perhaps he would have Hewetts
maester look at it, if the man had not been killed. He returned to deck as they came around a
headland. The way Lord Hewetts castle sat above the harbor reminded him of Lordsport, though
this town was twice as big. A score of longships prowled the waters beyond the port, the golden

kraken writhing on their sails. Hundreds more were beached along the shingles and drawn up to
the piers that lined the harbor. At a stone quay stood three great cogs and a dozen smaller ones,
taking on plunder and provisions. Victarion gave orders for the Iron Victory to drop anchor.
Have a boat made ready.
The town seemed strangely still as they approached. Most of the shops and houses had been
looted, as their smashed doors and broken shutters testified, but only the sept had been put to the
torch. The streets were strewn with corpses, each with a small flock of carrion crows in
attendance. A gang of sullen survivors moved amongst them, chasing off the black birds and
tossing the dead into the back of a wagon for burial. The notion filled Victarion with disgust. No
true son of the sea would want to rot beneath the ground. How would he ever find the Drowned
Gods watery halls, to drink and feast for all eternity?
The Silence was amongst the ships they passed. Victarions gaze was drawn to the iron
figurehead at her prow, the mouthless maiden with the windblown hair and outstretched arm. Her
mother-of-pearl eyes seemed to follow him. She had a mouth like any other woman, till the
Crows Eye sewed it shut.
As they neared the shore, he noticed a line of women and children herded up onto the deck of
one of the great cogs. Some had their hands bound behind their backs, and all wore loops of
hempen rope about their necks. Who are they? he asked the men who helped tie up their boat.
Widows and orphans. Theyre to be sold as slaves.
Sold? There were no slaves in the Iron Islands, only thralls. A thrall was bound to service, but
he was not chattel. His children were born free, so long as they were given to the Drowned God.
And thralls were never bought nor sold for gold. A man paid the iron price for thralls, or else had
none. They should be thralls, or salt wives, Victarion complained.
Its by the kings decree, the man said.
The strong have always taken from the weak, said Nute the Barber. Thralls or slaves, it
makes no matter. Their men could not defend them, so now they are ours, to do with as we will.
It is not the Old Way, he might have said, but there was no time. His victory had preceded him,
and men were gathering round to offer congratulations. Victarion let them fawn, until one began
to praise Eurons daring. It is daring to sail out of sight of land, so no word of our coming could
reach these islands before us, he growled, but crossing half the world to hunt for dragons, that
is something else. He did not wait for a reply, but shouldered through the press and on up to the
keep.
Lord Hewetts castle was small but strong, with thick walls and studded oaken gates that
evoked his Houses ancient arms, an oak escutcheon studded with iron upon a field of undy blue
and white. But it was the kraken of House Greyjoy that flew atop his green-roofed towers now,
and they found the great gates burned and broken. On the ramparts walked ironborn with spears
and axes, and some of Eurons mongrels too.
In the yard Victarion came on Gorold Goodbrother and old Drumm, speaking quietly with
Rodrik Harlaw. Nute the Barber gave a hoot at the sight of them. Reader, he called out, why
is your face so long? Your misgivings were for nought. The day is ours, and ours the prize!

Lord Rodriks mouth puckered. These rocks, you mean? All four together wouldnt make
Harlaw. We have won some stones and trees and trinkets, and the enmity of House Tyrell.
The roses? Nute laughed. What rose can harm the krakens of the deep? We have taken their
shields from them, and smashed them all to pieces. Who will protect them now?
Highgarden, replied the Reader. Soon enough all the power of the Reach will be marshaled
against us, Barber, and then you may learn that some roses have steel thorns.
Drumm nodded, one hand on the hilt of his Red Rain. Lord Tarly bears the greatsword
Heartsbane, forged of Valyrian steel, and he is always in Lord Tyrells van.
Victarions hunger flared. Let him come. I will take his sword for mine own, as your own
forebear took Red Rain. Let them all come, and bring the Lannisters as well. A lion may be
fierce enough on land, but at sea the kraken rules supreme. He would give half his teeth for the
chance to try his axe against the Kingslayer or the Knight of Flowers. That was the sort of battle
that he understood. The kinslayer was accursed in the eyes of gods and men, but the warrior was
honored and revered.
Have no fear, Lord Captain, said the Reader. They will come. His Grace desires it. Why else
would he have commanded us to let Hewetts ravens fly?
You read too much and fight too little, Nute said. Your blood is milk. But the Reader made
as if he had not heard.
A riotous feast was in progress when Victarion entered the hall. Ironborn filled the tables,
drinking and shouting and jostling each other, boasting of the men that they had slain, the deeds
that they had done, the prizes they had won. Many were bedecked with plunder. Left-Hand
Lucas Codd and Quellon Humble had torn tapestries off the walls to serve as cloaks. Germund
Botley wore a rope of pearls and garnets over his gilded Lannister breastplate. Andrik the
Unsmiling staggered by with a woman under each arm; though he remained unsmiling, he had
rings on every finger. Instead of trenchers carved from old stale bread, the captains were eating
off solid silver platters.
Nute the Barbers face grew dark with anger as he looked about. The Crows Eye sends us
forth to face the longships, whilst his own men take the castles and the villages and grab all the
loot and women. What has he left for us?
We have the glory.
Glory is good, said Nute, but gold is better.
Victarion shrugged. The Crows Eye says we shall have all of Westeros. The Arbor, Oldtown,
Highgarden... thats where youll find your gold. But enough talk. Im hungry.
By right of blood Victarion might have claimed a seat on the dais, but he did not care to eat
with Euron and his creatures. Instead, he chose a place by Ralf the Limper, the captain of the
Lord Quellon. A great victory, Lord Captain, said the Limper. A victory worthy of a lordship.
You should have an island.
Lord Victarion. Aye, and why not? It might not be the Seastone Chair, but it would be
something.

Hotho Harlaw was across the table, sucking meat off a bone. He flicked it aside and hunched
forward. The Knights to have Greyshield. My cousin. Did you hear?
No. Victarion looked across the hall, to where Ser Harras Harlaw sat drinking wine from a
golden cup; a tall man, long-faced and austere. Why would Euron give that one an island?
Hotho held out his empty wine cup, and a pale young woman in a gown of blue velvet and gilt
lace refilled it for him. The Knight took Grimston by himself. He planted his standard beneath
the castle and defied the Grimms to face him. One did, and then another, and another. He slew
them all... well, near enough, two yielded. When the seventh man went down, Lord Grimms
septon decided the gods had spoken and surrendered the castle. Hotho laughed. Hell be the
Lord of Greyshield, and welcome to it. With him gone, I am the Readers heir. He thumped his
wine cup against his chest. Hotho the Humpback, Lord of Harlaw.
Seven, you say. Victarion wondered how Nightfall would fare against his axe. He had never
fought a man armed with a Valyrian steel blade, though he had thrashed young Harras Harlaw
many a time when both of them were young. As a boy Harlaw had been fast friends with Balons
eldest son, Rodrik, who had died beneath the walls of Seagard.
The feast was good. The wine was of the best, and there was roast ox, rare and bloody, and
stuffed ducks as well, and buckets of fresh crabs. The serving wenches wore fine woolens and
plush velvets, the Lord Captain did not fail to note. He took them for scullions dressed up in the
clothes of Lady Hewett and her ladies, until Hotho told him they were Lady Hewett and her
ladies. It amused the Crows Eye to make them wait and pour. There were eight of them: her
ladyship herself, still handsome though grown somewhat stout, and seven younger women aged
from twenty-five to ten, her daughters and good-daughters.
Lord Hewett himself sat in his accustomed place upon the dais, dressed in all his heraldic
finery. His arms and legs had been tied to his chair, and a huge white radish shoved between his
teeth so he could not speak... though he could see and hear. The Crows Eye had claimed the
place of honor at his lordships right hand. A pretty, buxom girl of seventeen or eighteen years
was in his lap, barefoot and disheveled, her arms around his neck. Who is that? Victarion
asked the men around him.
His lordships bastard daughter, laughed Hotho. Before Euron took the castle, she was made
to wait at table on the rest and take her own meals with the servants.
Euron put his blue lips to her throat, and the girl giggled and whispered something in his ear.
Smiling, he kissed her throat again. Her white skin was covered with red marks where his mouth
had been; they made a rosy necklace about her neck and shoulders. Another whisper in his ear,
and this time the Crows Eye laughed aloud, then slammed his wine cup down for silence. Good
ladies, he called out to his highborn serving women, Falia is concerned for your fine gowns.
She would not have them stained with grease and wine and dirty groping fingers, since I have
promised that she may choose her own clothes from your wardrobes after the feast. So you had
best disrobe.
A roar of laughter washed over the great hall, and Lord Hewetts face turned so red that
Victarion thought his head might burst. The women had no choice but to obey. The youngest one

cried a little, but her mother comforted her and helped undo the laces down her back. Afterward,
they continued to serve as before, moving along the tables with flagons full of wine to fill each
empty cup, only now they did so naked.
He shames Hewett as he once shamed me, the captain thought, remembering how his wife had
sobbed as he was beating her. The men of the Four Shields oft married one another, he knew,
just as the ironborn did. One of these naked serving wenches might well be Ser Talbert Serrys
wife. It was one thing to kill a foe, another to dishonor him. Victarion made a fist. His hand was
bloody where his wound had soaked through the linen.
On the dais, Euron pushed aside his slattern and climbed upon the table. The captains began to
bang their cups and stamp their feet upon the floor. EURON! they shouted. EURON!
EURON! EURON! It was kingsmoot come again.
I swore to give you Westeros, the Crows Eye said when the tumult died away, and here is
your first taste. A morsel, nothing more... but we shall feast before the fall of night! The torches
along the walls were burning bright, and so was he, blue lips, blue eye, and all. What the kraken
grasps it does not loose. These isles were once ours, and now they are again... but we need strong
men to hold them. So rise, Ser Harras Harlaw, Lord of Greyshield. The Knight stood, one hand
upon Nightfalls moonstone pommel. Rise, Andrik the Unsmiling, Lord of Southshield.
Andrik shoved away his women and lurched to his feet, like a mountain rising sudden from the
sea. Rise, Maron Volmark, Lord of Greenshield. A beardless boy of six-and-ten years,
Volmark stood hesitantly, looking like the lord of rabbits. And rise, Nute the Barber, Lord of
Oakenshield.
Nutes eyes grew wary, as if he feared he was the butt of some cruel jape. A lord? he croaked.
Victarion had expected the Crows Eye to give the lordships to his own creatures, Stonehand
and the Red Oarsman and Left-Hand Lucas Codd. A king must needs be open-handed, he tried to
tell himself, but another voice whispered, Eurons gifts are poisoned. When he turned it over in
his head, he saw it plain. The Knight was the Readers chosen heir, and Andrik the Unsmiling
the strong right arm of Dunstan Drumm. Volmark is a callow boy, but he has Black Harrens
blood in him through his mother. And the Barber...
Victarion grabbed him by the forearm. Refuse him!
Nute looked at him as if he had gone mad. Refuse him? Lands and lordship? Will you make
me a lord? He wrenched his arm away and stood, basking in the cheers.
And now he steals my men away, Victarion thought.
King Euron called to Lady Hewett for a fresh cup of wine and raised it high above his head.
Captains and kings, lift your cups to the Lords of the Four Shields! Victarion drank with the
rest. There is no wine so sweet as wine taken from a foe. Someone had told him that once. His
father, or his brother Balon. One day I shall drink your wine, Crows Eye, and take from you all
that you hold dear. But was there anything Euron held dear?
On the morrow we prepare once more to sail, the king was saying. Fill our casks anew with
spring water, take every sack of grain and cask of beef, and as many sheep and goats as we can
carry. The wounded who are still hale enough to pull an oar will row. The rest shall remain here,

to help hold these isles for their new lords. Torwold and the Red Oarsman will soon be back with
more provisions. Our decks will stink of pigs and chickens on the voyage east, but well return
with dragons.
When? The voice was Lord Rodriks. When shall we return, Your Grace? A year? Three
years? Five? Your dragons are a world away, and autumn is upon us. The Reader walked
forward, sounding all the hazards. Galleys guard the Redwyne Straits. The Dornish coast is dry
and bleak, four hundred leagues of whirlpools, cliffs, and hidden shoals with hardly a safe
landing anywhere. Beyond wait the Stepstones, with their storms and their nests of Lysene and
Myrish pirates. If a thousand ships set sail, three hundred may reach the far side of the narrow
sea... and then what? Lys will not welcome us, nor will Volantis. Where will you find fresh
water, food? The first storm will scatter us across half the earth.
A smile played across Eurons blue lips. I am the storm, my lord. The first storm, and the last.
I have taken the Silence on longer voyages than this, and ones far more hazardous. Have you
forgotten? I have sailed the Smoking Sea and seen Valyria.
Every man there knew that the Doom still ruled Valyria. The very sea there boiled and smoked,
and the land was overrun with demons. It was said that any sailor who so much as glimpsed the
fiery mountains of Valyria rising above the waves would soon die a dreadful death, yet the
Crows Eye had been there, and returned.
Have you? the Reader asked, so softly.
Eurons blue smile vanished. Reader, he said into the quiet, you would do well to keep your
nose in your books.
Victarion could feel the unease in the hall. He pushed himself to his feet. Brother, he boomed.
You have not answered Harlaws questions.
Euron shrugged. The price of slaves is rising. We will sell our slaves in Lys and Volantis.
That, and the plunder we have taken here, will give us sufficient gold to buy provisions.
Are we slavers now? asked the Reader. And for what? Dragons that no man here has seen?
Shall we chase some drunken sailors fancy to the far ends of the earth?
His words drew mutters of assent. Slavers Bay is too far, called out Ralf the Limper. And
too close to Valyria, shouted Quellon Humble. Fralegg the Strong said, Highgardens close. I
say, look for dragons there. The golden kind! Alvyn Sharp said, Why sail the world, when the
Mander lies before us? Red Ralf Stonehouse bounded to his feet. Oldtown is richer, and the
Arbor richer still. Redwynes fleet is off away. We need only reach out our hand to pluck the
ripest fruit in Westeros.
Fruit? The kings eye looked more black than blue. Only a craven would steal a fruit when
he could take the orchard.
It is the Arbor we want, said Red Ralf, and other men took up the cry. The Crows Eye let the
shouts wash over him. Then he leapt down from the table, grabbed his slattern by the arm, and
pulled her from the hall.
Fled, like a dog. Eurons hold upon the Seastone Chair suddenly did not seem as secure as it
had a few moments before. They will not follow him to Slavers Bay. Perhaps they are not such

dogs and fools as I had feared. That was such a merry thought that Victarion had to wash it
down. He drained a cup with the Barber, to show him that he did not begrudge him his lordship,
even if it came from Eurons hand.
Outside the sun went down. Darkness gathered beyond the walls, but inside the torches burned
with a ruddy orange glow, and their smoke gathered under the rafters like a grey cloud. Drunken
men began to dance the finger dance. At some point Left-Hand Lucas Codd decided he wanted
one of Lord Hewetts daughters, so he took her on a table whilst her sisters screamed and
sobbed.
Victarion felt a tap upon his shoulder. One of Eurons mongrel sons stood behind him, a boy of
ten with woolly hair and skin the color of mud. My father wishes words with you.
Victarion rose unsteadily. He was a big man, with a large capacity for wine, but even so, he had
drunk too much. I beat her to death with mine own hands, he thought, but the Crows Eye killed
her when he shoved himself inside her. I had no choice. He followed the bastard boy from the
hall and up a winding stone stair. The sounds of rape and revelry diminished as they climbed,
until there was only the soft scrape of boots on stone.
The Crows Eye had taken Lord Hewetts bedchamber along with his bastard daughter. When
he entered, the girl was sprawled naked on the bed, snoring softly. Euron stood by the window,
drinking from a silver cup. He wore the sable cloak he took from Blacktyde, his red leather eye
patch, and nothing else. When I was a boy, I dreamt that I could fly, he announced. When I
woke, I couldnt... or so the maester said. But what if he lied?
Victarion could smell the sea through the open window, though the room stank of wine and
blood and sex. The cold salt air helped to clear his head. What do you mean?
Euron turned to face him, his bruised blue lips curled in a half smile. Perhaps we can fly. All
of us. How will we ever know unless we leap from some tall tower? The wind came gusting
through the window and stirred his sable cloak. There was something obscene and disturbing
about his nakedness. No man ever truly knows what he can do unless he dares to leap.
There is the window. Leap. Victarion had no patience for this. His wounded hand was
troubling him. What do you want?
The world. Firelight glimmered in Eurons eye. His smiling eye. Will you take a cup of Lord
Hewetts wine? Theres no wine half so sweet as wine taken from a beaten foe.
No. Victarion glanced away. Cover yourself.
Euron seated himself and gave his cloak a twitch, so it covered his private parts. I had
forgotten what a small and noisy folk they are, my ironborn. I would bring them dragons, and
they shout out for grapes.
Grapes are real. A man can gorge himself on grapes. Their juice is sweet, and they make wine.
What do dragons make?
Woe. The Crows Eye sipped from his silver cup. I once held a dragons egg in this hand,
brother. This Myrish wizard swore he could hatch it if I gave him a year and all the gold that he
required. When I grew bored with his excuses, I slew him. As he watched his entrails sliding

through his fingers he said, But it has not been a year. He laughed. Cragorns died, you
know.
Who?
The man who blew my dragon horn. When the maester cut him open, his lungs were charred
as black as soot.
Victarion shuddered. Show me this dragons egg.
I threw it in the sea during one of my dark moods. Euron gave a shrug. It comes to me that
the Reader was not wrong. Too large a fleet could never hold together over such a distance. The
voyage is too long, too perilous. Only our finest ships and crews could hope to sail to Slavers
Bay and back. The Iron Fleet.
The Iron Fleet is mine, Victarion thought. He said nothing.
The Crows Eye filled two cups with a strange black wine that flowed as thick as honey. Drink
with me, brother. Have a taste of this. He offered one of the cups to Victarion.
The captain took the cup Euron had not offered, sniffed at its contents suspiciously. Seen up
close, it looked more blue than black. It was thick and oily, with a smell like rotted flesh. He
tried a small swallow, and spit it out at once. Foul stuff. Do you mean to poison me?
I mean to open your eyes. Euron drank deep from his own cup, and smiled. Shade-of-the-
evening, the wine of the warlocks. I came upon a cask of it when I captured a certain galleas out
of Qarth, along with some cloves and nutmeg, forty bolts of green silk, and four warlocks who
told a curious tale. One presumed to threaten me, so I killed him and fed him to the other three.
They refused to eat of their friends flesh at first, but when they grew hungry enough they had a
change of heart. Men are meat.
Balon was mad, Aeron is madder, and Euron is maddest of them all. Victarion was turning to
go when the Crows Eye said, A king must have a wife, to give him heirs. Brother, I have need
of you. Will you go to Slavers Bay and bring my love to me?
I had a love once too. Victarions hands coiled into fists, and a drop of blood fell to patter on
the floor. I should beat you raw and red and feed you to the crabs, the same as I did her. You
have sons, he told his brother.
Baseborn mongrels, born of whores and weepers.
They are of your body.
So are the contents of my chamber pot. None is fit to sit the Seastone Chair, much less the Iron
Throne. No, to make an heir thats worthy of him, I need a different woman. When the kraken
weds the dragon, brother, let all the world beware.
What dragon? said Victarion, frowning.
The last of her line. They say she is the fairest woman in the world. Her hair is silver-gold, and
her eyes are amethysts... but you need not take my word for it, brother. Go to Slavers Bay,
behold her beauty, and bring her back to me.
Why should I? Victarion demanded.

For love. For duty. Because your king commands it. Euron chuckled. And for the Seastone
Chair. It is yours, once I claim the Iron Throne. You shall follow me as I followed Balon... and
your own trueborn sons shall one day follow you.
My own sons. But to have a trueborn son a man must first have a wife. Victarion had no luck
with wives. Eurons gifts are poisoned, he reminded himself, but still...
The choice is yours, brother. Live a thrall or die a king. Do you dare to fly? Unless you take
the leap, youll never know.
Eurons smiling eye was bright with mockery. Or do I ask too much of you? It is a fearsome
thing to sail beyond Valyria.
I could sail the Iron Fleet to hell if need be. When Victarion opened his hand, his palm was
red with blood. Ill go to Slavers Bay, aye. Ill find this dragon woman, and Ill bring her
back. But not for you. You stole my wife and despoiled her, so Ill have yours. The fairest
woman in the world, for me.

JAIME
The fields outside the walls of Darry were being tilled once more. The burned crops had
been plowed under, and Ser Addams scouts reported seeing women in the furrows pulling
weeds, whilst a team of oxen broke new ground on the edge of a nearby wood. A dozen bearded
men with axes stood guard over them as they worked.
By the time Jaime and his column reached the castle, all of them had fled within the walls. He
found Darry closed to him, just as Harrenhal had been. A chilly welcome from mine own blood.
Sound the horn, he commanded. Ser Kennos of Kayce unslung the Horn of Herrock and let it
wind. As he waited for a response from the castle, Jaime eyed the banner floating brown and
crimson above his cousins barbican. Lancel had taken to quartering the lion of Lannister with
the Darry plowman, it would seem. He saw his uncles hand in that, as in Lancels choice of
bride. House Darry had ruled these lands since the Andals cast down the First Men. No doubt Ser
Kevan realized that his son would have an easier time of it if the peasants saw him as a
continuation of the old line, holding these lands by right of marriage rather than royal decree.
Kevan should be Tommens Hand. Harys Swyft is a toad, and my sister is a fool if she thinks
elsewise.
The castle gates swung open slowly. My coz will not have room to accommodate a thousand
men, Jaime told Strongboar. Well make camp beneath the western wall. I want the perimeters
ditched and staked. There are still bands of outlaws in these parts.
Theyd need to be mad to attack a force as strong as ours.
Mad or starving. Until he had a better notion of these outlaws and their strength, Jaime was
not inclined to take any risks with his defenses. Ditched and staked, he said again, before
spurring Honor toward the gate. Ser Dermot rode beside him with the royal stag and lion, and
Ser Hugo Vance with the white standard of the Kingsguard. Jaime had charged Red Ronnet with
the task of delivering Wylis Manderly to Maidenpool, so he would not need to look on him
henceforth.
Pia rode with Jaimes squires, on the gelding Peck had found for her. Its like some toy castle,
Jaime heard her say. Shes known no home but Harrenhal, he reflected. Every castle in the realm
will seem small to her, except the Rock.
Josmyn Peckleton was saying the same thing. You must not judge by Harrenhal. Black Harren
built too big. Pia listened as solemnly as a girl of five being lessoned by her septa. Thats all she
is, a little girl in a womans body, scarred and scared. Peck was taken with her, though. Jaime
suspected that the boy had never known a woman, and Pia was still pretty enough, so long as she
kept her mouth closed. Theres no harm in him bedding her, I suppose, so long as shes willing.
One of the Mountains men had tried to rape the girl at Harrenhal, and had seemed honestly
perplexed when Jaime commanded Ilyn Payne to take his head off. I had her before, a hunnerd
times, he kept saying as they forced him to his knees. A hunnerd times, mlord. We all had
her. When Ser Ilyn presented Pia with his head, she had smiled through her ruined teeth.

Darry had changed hands several times during the fighting, and its castle had been burned once
and sacked at least twice, but Lancel had seemingly wasted little time setting things to rights.
The castle gates were newly hung, raw oaken planks reinforced with iron studs. A new stable
was going up where an older one had been put to the torch. The steps to the keep had been
replaced, and the shutters on many of the windows. Blackened stones showed where the flames
had licked, but time and rain would fade those.
Within the walls, crossbowmen walked the ramparts, some in crimson cloaks and lion-crested
helms, others in the blue and grey of House Frey. As Jaime trotted across the yard, chickens ran
out from under Honors hooves, sheep bleated, and peasants stared at him with sullen eyes.
Armed peasants, he did not fail to note. Some had scythes, some staves, some hoes sharpened to
cruel points. There were axes in evidence as well, and he spied several bearded men with red,
seven-pointed stars sewn onto ragged, filthy tunics. More bloody sparrows. Where do they all
come from?
Of his uncle Kevan he saw no sign. Nor of Lancel. Only a maester emerged to greet him, with a
grey robe flapping about his skinny legs. Lord Commander, Darry is honored by this...
unexpected visit. You must forgive our lack of preparations. We had been given to understand
that you were bound for Riverrun.
Darry was on my way, lied Jaime. Riverrun will keep. And if perchance the siege had ended
before he reached the castle, he would be spared the need to take up arms against House Tully.
Dismounting, he handed Honor to a stableboy. Will I find my uncle here? He did not supply a
name. Ser Kevan was the only uncle he had left, the last surviving son of Tytos Lannister.
No, my lord. Ser Kevan took his leave of us after the wedding. The maester pulled at the
chain collar, as if it had grown too tight for him. I know Lord Lancel will be pleased to see you
and... and all your gallant knights. Though it pains me to confess that Darry cannot feed so
many.
We have our own provisions. You are?
Maester Ottomore, if it please my lord. Lady Amerei wished to welcome you herself, but she
is seeing to the preparation of a feast in your honor. It is her hope that you and your chief knights
and captains will join us at table this evening.
A hot meal would be most welcome. The days have been cold and wet. Jaime glanced about
the yard, at the bearded faces of the sparrows. Too many. And too many Freys as well. Where
will I find Hardstone?
We had a report of outlaws beyond the Trident. Ser Harwyn took five knights and twenty
archers and went to deal with them.
And Lord Lancel?
He is at his prayers. His lordship has commanded us never to disturb him when he is praying.
He and Ser Bonifer should get on well. Very well. There would be time enough to talk with
his cousin later. Show me to my chambers and have a bath brought up.
If it please my lord, we have put you in the Plowmans Keep. I will show you there.

I know the way. Jaime was no stranger to this castle. He and Cersei had been guests here
twice before, once on their way to Winterfell with Robert, and again on the way back to Kings
Landing. Though small as castles went, it was larger than an inn, with good hunting along the
river. Robert Baratheon had never been never loath to impose upon the hospitality of his
subjects.
The keep was much as he recalled it. The walls are still bare, Jaime observed as the maester
led him down a gallery.
Lord Lancel hopes one day to cover them with hangings, said Ottomore. Scenes of piety and
devotion.
Piety and devotion. It was all he could do not to laugh. The walls had been bare on his first visit
too. Tyrion had pointed out the squares of darker stone where tapestries had once hung. Ser
Raymun could remove the hangings, but not the marks theyd left. Later, the Imp had slipped a
handful of stags to one of Darrys serving men for the key to the cellar where the missing
tapestries were hidden. He showed them to Jaime by the light of a candle, grinning; woven
portraits of all the Targaryen kings, from the first Aegon to the second Aenys. If I tell Robert,
mayhaps hell make me Lord of Darry, the dwarf said, chortling.
Maester Ottomore led Jaime to the top of the keep. I trust you will be comfortable here, my
lord. There is a privy, when nature calls. Your window looks out upon the godswood. The
bedchamber adjoins her ladyships, with a servants cell between.
These were Lord Darrys own apartments.
Yes, my lord.
My cousin is too kind. I did not intend to put Lancel out of his own bedchamber.
Lord Lancel has been sleeping in the sept.
Sleeping with the Mother and the Maiden, when he has a warm wife just through that door?
Jaime did not know whether to laugh or weep. Maybe he is praying for his cock to harden. In
Kings Landing it had been rumored that Lancels wounds had left him incapable. Still, he ought
to have sense enough to try. His cousins hold on his new lands would not be secure until he
fathered a son on his half-Darry wife. Jaime had begun to rue the impulse that had brought him
here. He gave thanks to Ottomore, reminded him about the bath, and had Peck see him out.
The lords bedchamber had changed since his last visit, and not for the better. Old stale rushes
covered the floor in place of the fine Myrish carpet that had been there previously, and all the
furnishings were new and crudely made. Ser Raymun Darrys bed had been large enough to
sleep six, with brown velvet draperies and oakwood posts carved with vines and leaves; Lancels
was a lumpy straw pallet, placed beneath the window where the first light of day would be sure
to wake him. The other bed had no doubt been burned or smashed or stolen, but even so...
When the tub arrived, Little Lew pulled off Jaimes boots and helped remove his golden hand.
Peck and Garrett hauled water, and Pia found him something clean to sup in. The girl glanced at
him shyly as she shook his doublet out. Jaime was uncomfortably aware of the curve of hip and
breast beneath her roughspun brown dress. He found himself remembering the things that Pia

had whispered to him at Harrenhal, the night that Qyburn sent her to his bed. Sometimes when
Im with some man, shed said, I close my eyes and pretend its you on top of me.
He was grateful when the bath was deep enough to conceal his arousal. As he lowered himself
into the steaming water, he recalled another bath, the one hed shared with Brienne. He had been
feverish and weak from loss of blood, and the heat had made him so dizzy he found himself
saying things better left unsaid. This time he had no such excuse. Remember your vows. Pia is
more fit for Tyrions bed than yours. Fetch me soap and a stiff brush, he told Peck. Pia, you
may leave us.
Aye, mlord. Thank you, mlord. She covered her mouth when she spoke, to hide her broken
teeth.
Do you want her? Jaime asked Peck, when she was gone.
The squire turned beet red.
If shell have you, take her. Shell teach you a few things youll find useful on your wedding
night, I dont doubt, and youre not like to get a bastard by her. Pia had spread her legs for half
his fathers army and never quickened; most like the girl was barren. If you bed her, though, be
kind to her.
Kind, my lord? How... how would I... ?
Sweet words. Gentle touches. You dont want to wed her, but so long as youre abed treat her
as you would your bride.
The lad nodded. My lord, I... where should I take her? Theres never a place to... to...
... to be alone? Jaime grinned. Well be at supper several hours. The straw looks lumpy, but
it should serve.
Pecks eyes grew wide. His lordships bed?
Youll feel a lord yourself when youre done, if Pia knows her business. And someone ought
to make some use of that miserable straw mattress.
When he descended for the feast that night, Jaime Lannister wore a doublet of red velvet
slashed with cloth-of-gold, and a golden chain studded with black diamonds. He had strapped on
his golden hand as well, polished to a fine bright sheen. This was no fit place to wear his whites.
His duty awaited him at Riverrun; a darker need had brought him here.
Darrys great hall was great only by courtesy. Trestle tables crowded it from wall to wall, and
the ceiling rafters were black with smoke. Jaime had been seated on the dais, to the right of
Lancels empty chair. Will my cousin not be joining us for supper? he asked as he sat down.
My lord prefers to fast, said Lancels wife, the Lady Amerei. Hes sick with grief for the
poor High Septon. She was a long-legged, full-breasted, strapping girl of some eight-and-ten
years; a healthy wench to look at her, though her pinched, chinless face reminded Jaime of his
late and unlamented cousin Cleos, who had always looked somewhat like a weasel.
Fasting? He is an even bigger fool than I suspected. His cousin should be busy fathering a little
weasel-faced heir on his widow instead of starving himself to death. He wondered what Ser
Kevan might have had to say about his sons new fervor. Could that be the reason for his uncles
abrupt departure?

Over bowls of bean-and-bacon soup Lady Amerei told Jaime how her first husband had been
slain by Ser Gregor Clegane when the Freys were still fighting for Robb Stark. I begged him not
to go, but my Pate was oh so very brave, and swore he was the man to slay that monster. He
wanted to make a great name for himself.
We all do. When I was a squire I told myself Id be the man to slay the Smiling Knight.
The Smiling Knight? She sounded lost. Who was that?
The Mountain of my boyhood. Half as big but twice as mad.
An outlaw, long dead. No one who need concern your ladyship.
Amereis lip trembled. Tears rolled from her brown eyes.
You must forgive my daughter, said an older woman. Lady Amerei had brought a score of
Freys to Darry with her; a sister, an uncle, a half uncle, various cousins... and her mother, who
had been born a Darry. She still grieves for her father.
Outlaws killed him, sobbed Lady Amerei. Father had only gone out to ransom Petyr Pimple.
He brought them the gold they asked for, but they hung him anyway.
Hanged, Ami. Your father was not a tapestry. Lady Mariya turned back to Jaime. I believe
you knew him, ser.
We were squires together once, at Crakehall. He would not go so far as to claim they had
been friends. When Jaime had arrived, Merrett Frey had been the castle bully, lording it over all
the younger boys. Then he tried to bully me. He was... very strong. It was the only praise that
came to mind. Merrett had been slow and clumsy and stupid, but he was strong.
You fought against the Kingswood Brotherhood together, sniffed Lady Amerei. Father used
to tell me stories.
Father used to boast and lie, you mean. We did. Freys chief contributions to the fight had
consisted of contracting the pox from a camp follower and getting himself captured by the White
Fawn. The outlaw queen burned her sigil into his arse before ransoming him back to Sumner
Crakehall. Merrett had not been able to sit down for a fortnight, though Jaime doubted that the
red-hot iron was half so nasty as the kettles of shit his fellow squires made him eat once he was
returned. Boys are the cruelest creatures on the earth. He slipped his golden hand around his
wine cup and raised it up. To Merretts memory, he said. It was easier to drink to the man than
to talk of him.
After the toast Lady Amerei stopped weeping and the table talk turned to wolves, of the four-
footed kind. Ser Danwell Frey claimed there were more of them about than even his grandfather
could remember. Theyve lost all fear of men. Packs of them attacked our baggage train on our
way down from the Twins. Our archers had to feather a dozen before the others fled. Ser
Addam Marbrand confessed that their own column had faced similar troubles on their way up
from Kings Landing.
Jaime concentrated on the fare before him, tearing off chunks of bread with his left hand and
fumbling at his wine cup with his right. He watched Addam Marbrand charm the girl beside him,
watched Steffon Swyft refight the battle for Kings Landing with bread and nuts and carrots. Ser
Kennos pulled a serving girl into his lap, urging her to stroke his horn, whilst Ser Dermot regaled

some squires with tales of knight errantry in the rainwood. Farther down the table Hugo Vance
had closed his eyes. Brooding on the mysteries of life, thought Jaime. That, or napping between
courses. He turned back to Lady Mariya. The outlaws who killed your husband... was it Lord
Berics band?
So we thought, at first. Though Lady Mariyas hair was streaked with grey, she was still a
handsome woman. The killers scattered when they left Oldstones. Lord Vypren tracked one
band to Fairmarket, but lost them there. Black Walder led hounds and hunters into Hags Mire
after the others. The peasants denied seeing them, but when questioned sharply they sang a
different song. They spoke of a one-eyed man and another who wore a yellow cloak... and a
woman, cloaked and hooded.
A woman? He would have thought that the White Fawn would have taught Merrett to stay
clear of outlaw wenches. There was a woman in the Kingswood Brotherhood as well.
I know of her. How not, her tone suggested, when she left her mark upon my husband? The
White Fawn was young and fair, they say. This hooded woman is neither. The peasants would
have us believe that her face was torn and scarred, and her eyes terrible to look upon. They claim
she led the outlaws.
Led them? Jaime found that hard to believe. Beric Dondarrion and the red priest...
... were not seen. Lady Mariya sounded certain.
Dondarrions dead, said Strongboar. The Mountain drove a knife through his eye, we have
men with us who saw it.
Thats one tale, said Addam Marbrand. Others will tell you that Lord Beric cant be killed.
Ser Harwyn says those tales are lies. Lady Amerei wound a braid around her finger. He has
promised me Lord Berics head. Hes very gallant. She was blushing beneath her tears.
Jaime thought back on the head hed given to Pia. He could almost hear his little brother
chuckle. Whatever became of giving women flowers? Tyrion might have asked. He would have
had a few choice words for Harwyn Plumm as well, though gallant would not have been one of
them. Plumms brothers were big, fleshy fellows with thick necks and red faces; loud and lusty,
quick to laugh, quick to anger, quick to forgive. Harwyn was a different sort of Plumm; hard-
eyed and taciturn, unforgiving... and deadly, with his hammer in his hand. A good man to
command a garrison, but not a man to love. Although... Jaime gazed at Lady Amerei.
The serving men were bringing out the fish course, a river pike baked in a crust of herbs and
crushed nuts. Lancels lady tasted it, approved, and commanded that the first portion be served to
Jaime. As they set the fish before him, she leaned across her husbands place to touch his golden
hand. You could kill Lord Beric, Ser Jaime. You slew the Smiley Knight. Please, my lord, I beg
you, stay and help us with Lord Beric and the Hound. Her pale fingers caressed his golden ones.
Does she think that I can feel that? The Sword of the Morning slew the Smiling Knight, my
lady. Ser Arthur Dayne, a better knight than me. Jaime pulled back his golden fingers and
turned once more to Lady Mariya. How far did Black Walder track this hooded woman and her
men?

His hounds picked up their scent again north of Hags Mire, the older woman told him. He
swears that he was no more than half a day behind them when they vanished into the Neck.
Let them rot there, declared Ser Kennos cheerfully. If the gods are good, theyll be
swallowed up in quicksand or gobbled down by lizard-lions.
Or taken in by frogeaters, said Ser Danwell Frey. I would not put it past the crannogmen to
shelter outlaws.
Would that it were only them, said Lady Mariya. Some of the river lords are hand in glove
with Lord Berics men as well.
The smallfolk too, sniffed her daughter. Ser Harwyn says they hide them and feed them, and
when he asks where theyve gone, they lie. They lie to their own lords!
Have their tongues out, urged Strongboar.
Good luck getting answers then, said Jaime. If you want their help, you need to make them
love you. That was how Arthur Dayne did it, when we rode against the Kingswood Brotherhood.
He paid the smallfolk for the food we ate, brought their grievances to King Aerys, expanded the
grazing lands around their villages, even won them the right to fell a certain number of trees each
year and take a few of the kings deer during the autumn. The forest folk had looked to Toyne to
defend them, but Ser Arthur did more for them than the Brotherhood could ever hope to do, and
won them to our side. After that, the rest was easy.
The Lord Commander speaks wisely, said Lady Mariya. We shall never be rid of these
outlaws until the smallfolk come to love Lancel as much as they once loved my father and
grandfather.
Jaime glanced at his cousins empty place. Lancel will never win their love by praying, though.
Lady Amerei put on a pout. Ser Jaime, I pray you, do not abandon us. My lord has need of
you, and so do I. These are such fearful times. Some nights I can hardly sleep, for fear.
My place is with the king, my lady.
Ill come, offered Strongboar. Once were done at Riverrun, Ill be itching for another fight.
Not that Beric Dondarrion is like to give me one. I recall the man from tourneys past. A comely
lad in a pretty cloak, he was. Slight and callow.
That was before he died, said young Ser Arwood Frey. Death changed him, the smallfolk
say. You can kill him, but he wont stay dead. How do you fight a man like that? And theres the
Hound as well. He slew twenty men at Saltpans.
Strongboar guffawed. Twenty fat innkeeps, maybe. Twenty serving men pissing in their
breeches. Twenty begging brothers armed with bowls. Not twenty knights. Not me.
There is a knight at Saltpans, Ser Arwood insisted. He hid behind his walls whilst Clegane
and his mad dogs ravaged through his town. You have not seen the things he did, ser. I have.
When the reports reached the Twins, I rode down with Harys Haigh and his brother Donnel and
half a hundred men, archers and men-at-arms. We thought it was Lord Berics work, and hoped
to find his trail. All that remains of Saltpans is the castle, and old Ser Quincy so frightened he
would not open his gates, but shouted down at us from his battlements. The rest is bones and
ashes. A whole town. The Hound put the buildings to the torch and the people to the sword and

rode off laughing. The women... you would not believe what he did to some of the women. I will
not speak of it at table. It made me sick to see.
I cried when I heard, said Lady Amerei.
Jaime sipped his wine. What makes you certain it was the Hound? What they were describing
sounded more like Gregors work than Sandors. Sandor had been hard and brutal, yes, but it was
his big brother who was the real monster in House Clegane.
He was seen, Ser Arwood said. That helm of his is not easily mistaken, nor forgotten, and
there were a few who survived to tell the tale. The girl he raped, some boys who hid, a woman
we found trapped beneath a blackened beam, the fisherfolk who watched the butchery from their
boats...
Do not call it butchery, Lady Mariya said softly. That gives insult to honest butchers
everywhere. Saltpans was the work of some fell beast in human skin.
This is a time for beasts, Jaime reflected, for lions and wolves and angry dogs, for ravens and
carrion crows.
Evil work. Strongboar filled his cup again. Lady Mariya, Lady Amerei, your distress has
moved me. You have my word, once Riverrun has fallen I shall return to hunt down the Hound
and kill him for you. Dogs do not frighten me.
This one should. Both men were large and powerful, but Sandor Clegane was much quicker,
and fought with a savagery that Lyle Crakehall could not hope to match.
Lady Amerei was thrilled, however. You are a true knight, Ser Lyle, to help a lady in distress.
At least she did not call herself a maiden. Jaime reached for his cup and knocked it over. The
linen tablecloth drank the wine. As the red stain spread, his companions all pretended not to
notice. High table courtesy, he told himself, but it tasted just like pity. He rose abruptly. My
lady. Pray excuse me.
Lady Amerei looked stricken. Would you leave us? Theres venison to come, and capons
stuffed with leeks and mushrooms.
Very fine, no doubt, but I could not eat another bite. I need to see my cousin. Bowing, Jaime
left them to their food.
Men were eating in the yard as well. The sparrows had gathered round a dozen cookfires to
warm their hands against the chill of dusk and watch fat sausages spit and sizzle above the
flames. There had to be a hundred of them. Useless mouths. Jaime wondered how many sausages
his cousin had laid by and how he intended to feed the sparrows once they were gone. They will
be eating rats by winter, unless they can get a harvest in. This late in autumn, the chances of
another harvest were not good.
He found the sept off the castles inner ward; a windowless, seven-sided, half-timbered building
with carved wood doors and a tiled roof. Three sparrows sat upon its steps. When Jaime
approached, they rose. Where you going, mlord? asked one. He was the smallest of the three,
but he had the biggest beard.
Inside.
His lordships in there, praying.

His lordship is my cousin.
Well, then, mlord, said a different sparrow, a huge bald man with a seven-pointed star
painted over one eye, you wont want to bother your cousin at his prayers.
Lord Lancel is asking the Father Above for guidance, said the third sparrow, the beardless
one. A boy, Jaime had thought, but her voice marked her for a woman, dressed in shapeless rags
and a shirt of rusted mail. He is praying for the soul of the High Septon and all the others who
have died.
Theyll still be dead tomorrow, Jaime told her. The Father Above has more time than I do.
Do you know who I am?
Some lord, said the big man with the starry eye.
Some cripple, said the small one with the big beard.
The Kingslayer, said the woman, but were no kings, just Poor Fellows, and you cant go in
unless his lordship says you can. She hefted a spiked club, and the small man raised an axe.
The doors behind them opened. Let my cousin pass in peace, friends, Lancel said softly. I
have been expecting him.
The sparrows moved aside.
Lancel looked even thinner than he had at Kings Landing. He was barefoot, and dressed in a
plain, roughspun tunic of undyed wool that made him look more like a beggar than a lord. The
crown of his head had been shaved smooth, but his beard had grown out a little. To call it peach
fuzz would have given insult to the peach. It went queerly with the white hair around his ears.
Cousin, said Jaime when they were alone within the sept, have you lost your bloody wits?
I prefer to say Ive found my faith.
Where is your father?
Gone. We quarreled. Lancel knelt before the altar of his other Father. Will you pray with
me, Jaime?
If I pray nicely, will the Father give me a new hand?
No. But the Warrior will give you courage, the Smith will lend you strength, and the Crone
will give you wisdom.
Its a hand I need. The seven gods loomed above carved altars, the dark wood gleaming in the
candlelight. A faint smell of incense hung in the air. You sleep down here?
Each night I make my bed beneath a different altar, and the Seven send me visions.
Baelor the Blessed once had visions too. Especially when he was fasting. How long has it been
since youve eaten?
My faith is all the nourishment I need.
Faith is like porridge. Better with milk and honey.
I dreamed that you would come. In the dream you knew what I had done. How Id sinned. You
killed me for it.
Youre more like to kill yourself with all this fasting. Didnt Baelor the Blessed fast himself
onto a bier?

Our lives are candle flames, says The Seven-Pointed Star. Any errant puff of wind can snuff us
out. Death is never far in this world, and seven hells await sinners who do not repent their sins.
Pray with me, Jaime.
If I do, will you eat a bowl of porridge? When his coz did not answer, Jaime sighed. You
should be sleeping with your wife, not with the Maid. You need a son with Darry blood if you
want to keep this castle.
A pile of cold stones. I never asked for it. I never wanted it. I only wanted... Lancel
shuddered. Seven save me, but I wanted to be you.
Jaime had to laugh. Better me than Blessed Baelor. Darry needs a lion, coz. So does your little
Frey. She gets moist between the legs every time someone mentions Hardstone. If she hasnt
bedded him yet, she will soon.
If she loves him, I wish them joy of one another.
A lion shouldnt have horns. You took the girl to wife.
I said some words and gave her a red cloak, but only to please Father. Marriage requires
consummation. King Baelor was made to wed his sister Daena, but they never lived as man and
wife, and he put her aside as soon as he was crowned.
The realm would have been better served if he had closed his eyes and fucked her. I know
enough history to know that. In any case, youre not like to be taken for Baelor the Blessed.
No, Lancel allowed. He was a rare spirit, pure and brave and innocent, untouched by all the
evils of the world. I am a sinner, with much and more to atone for.
Jaime put his hand on his cousins shoulder. What do you know of sin, coz? I killed my king.
The brave man slays with a sword, the craven with a wineskin. We are both kingslayers, ser.
Robert was no true king. Some might even say that a stag is a lions natural prey. Jaime could
feel the bones beneath his cousins skin... and something else as well. Lancel was wearing a hair
shirt underneath his tunic. What else did you do, to require so much atonement? Tell me.
His cousin bowed his head, tears running down his cheeks.
Those tears were all the answer Jaime needed. You killed the king, he said, then you fucked
the queen.
I never...
... lay with my sweet sister? Say it. Say it!
Never spilled my seed in... in her...
... cunt? suggested Jaime.
... womb, Lancel finished. It is not treason unless you finish inside. I gave her comfort, after
the king died. You were a captive, your father was in the field, and your brother... she was afraid
of him, and with good reason. He made me betray her.
Did he? Lancel and Ser Osmund and how many more? Was the part about Moon Boy just a
gibe? Did you force her?
No! I loved her. I wanted to protect her.
You wanted to be me. His phantom fingers itched. The day his sister had come to White Sword
Tower to beg him to renounce his vows, she had laughed after he refused her and boasted of

having lied to him a thousand times. Jaime had taken that for a clumsy attempt to hurt him as
hed hurt her. It may have been the only true thing that she ever said to me.
Do not think ill of the queen, Lancel pleaded. All flesh is weak, Jaime. No harm came of our
sin. No... no bastard.
No. Bastards are seldom made upon the belly. He wondered what his cousin would say if he
were to confess his own sins, the three treasons Cersei had named Joffrey, Tommen, and
Myrcella.
I was angry with Her Grace after the battle, but the High Septon said I must forgive her.
You confessed your sins to His High Holiness, did you?
He prayed for me when I was wounded. He was a good man.
Hes a dead man. They rang the bells for him. He wondered if his cousin had any notion what
fruit his words had borne. Lancel, youre a bloody fool.
You are not wrong, said Lancel, but my folly is behind me, ser. I have asked the Father
Above to show me the way, and he has. I am renouncing this lordship and this wife. Hardstone is
welcome to the both of them, if he likes. On the morrow I will return to Kings Landing and
swear my sword to the new High Septon and the Seven. I mean to take vows and join the
Warriors Sons.
The boy was not making sense. The Warriors Sons were proscribed three hundred years ago.
The new High Septon has revived them. Hes sent out a call for worthy knights to pledge their
lives and swords to the service of the Seven. The Poor Fellows are to be restored as well.
Why would the Iron Throne allow that? One of the early Targaryen kings had fought for
years to suppress the two military orders, Jaime recalled, though he did not remember which.
Maegor, perhaps, or the first Jaehaerys. Tyrion would have known.
His High Holiness writes that King Tommen has given his consent. I will show you the letter,
if you like.
Even if this is true... you are a lion of the Rock, a lord. You have a wife, a castle, lands to
defend, people to protect. If the gods are good, you will have sons of your blood to follow you.
Why would you throw all that away for... for some vow?
Why did you? asked Lancel softly.
For honor, Jaime might have said. For glory. That would have been a lie, though. Honor and
glory had played their parts, but most of it had been for Cersei. A laugh escaped his lips. Is it
the High Septon youre running to, or my sweet sister? Pray on that one, coz. Pray hard.
Will you pray with me, Jaime?
He glanced about the sept, at the gods. The Mother, full of mercy. The Father, stern in
judgment. The Warrior, one hand upon his sword. The Stranger in the shadows, his half-human
face concealed beneath a hooded mantle. I thought that I was the Warrior and Cersei was the
Maid, but all the time she was the Stranger, hiding her true face from my gaze. Pray for me, if
you like, he told his cousin. Ive forgotten all the words.
The sparrows were still fluttering about the steps when Jaime stepped back out into the night.
Thank you, he told them. I feel ever so much holier now.

He went and found Ser Ilyn and a pair of swords.
The castle yard was full of eyes and ears. To escape them, they sought out Darrys godswood.
There were no sparrows there, only trees bare and brooding, their black branches scratching at
the sky. A mat of dead leaves crunched beneath their feet.
Do you see that window, ser? Jaime used a sword to point. That was Raymun Darrys
bedchamber. Where King Robert slept, on our return from Winterfell. Ned Starks daughter had
run off after her wolf savaged Joff, youll recall. My sister wanted the girl to lose a hand. The old
penalty, for striking one of the blood royal. Robert told her she was cruel and mad. They fought
for half the night... well, Cersei fought, and Robert drank. Past midnight, the queen summoned
me inside. The king was passed out snoring on the Myrish carpet. I asked my sister if she wanted
me to carry him to bed. She told me I should carry her to bed, and shrugged out of her robe. I
took her on Raymun Darrys bed after stepping over Robert. If His Grace had woken I would
have killed him there and then. He would not have been the first king to die upon my sword... but
you know that story, dont you? He slashed at a tree branch, shearing it in half. As I was
fucking her, Cersei cried, I want. I thought that she meant me, but it was the Stark girl that she
wanted, maimed or dead. The things I do for love. It was only by chance that Starks own men
found the girl before me. If I had come on her first...
The pockmarks on Ser Ilyns face were black holes in the torchlight, as dark as Jaimes soul. He
made that clacking sound.
He is laughing at me, realized Jaime Lannister. For all I know you fucked my sister too, you
pock-faced bastard, he spat out. Well, shut your bloody mouth and kill me if you can.

BRIENNE
The septry stood upon an upthrust island half a mile from the shore, where the wide
mouth of the Trident widened further still to kiss the Bay of Crabs. Even from shore its
prosperity was apparent. Its slope was covered with terraced fields, with fishponds down below
and a windmill above, its wood-and-sailcloth blades turning slowly in the breeze off the bay.
Brienne could see sheep grazing on the hillside and storks wading in the shallow waters around
the ferry landing.
Saltpans is just across the water, said Septon Meribald, pointing north across the bay. The
brothers will ferry us over on the morning tide, though I fear what we shall find there. Let us
enjoy a good hot meal before we face that. The brothers always have a bone to spare for Dog.
Dog barked and wagged his tail.
The tide was going out now, and swiftly. The water that separated the island from the shore was
receding, leaving behind a broad expanse of glistening brown mudflats dotted by tidal pools that
glittered like golden coins in the afternoon sun. Brienne scratched the back of her neck, where an
insect had bitten her. She had pinned her hair up, and the sun had warmed her skin.
Why do they call it the Quiet Isle? asked Podrick.
Those who dwell here are penitents, who seek to atone for their sins through contemplation,
prayer, and silence. Only the Elder Brother and his proctors are permitted to speak, and the
proctors only for one day of every seven.
The silent sisters never speak, said Podrick. I heard they dont have any tongues.
Septon Meribald smiled. Mothers have been cowing their daughters with that tale since I was
your age. There was no truth to it then and there is none now. A vow of silence is an act of
contrition, a sacrifice by which we prove our devotion to the Seven Above. For a mute to take a
vow of silence would be akin to a legless man giving up the dance. He led his donkey down the
slope, beckoning them to follow. If you would sleep beneath a roof tonight, you must climb off
your horses and cross the mud with me. The path of faith, we call it. Only the faithful may cross
safely. The wicked are swallowed by the quicksands, or drowned when the tide comes rushing
in. None of you are wicked, I hope? Even so, I would be careful where I set my feet. Walk only
where I walk, and you shall reach the other side.
The path of faith was a crooked one, Brienne could not help but note. Though the island seemed
to rise to the northeast of where they left the shore, Septon Meribald did not make directly for it.
Instead, he started due east, toward the deeper waters of the bay, which shimmered blue and
silver in the distance. The soft brown mud squished up between his toes. As he walked he paused
from time to time, to probe ahead with his quarterstaff. Dog stayed near his heels, sniffing at
every rock, shell, and clump of seaweed. For once he did not bound ahead or stray.
Brienne followed, taking care to keep close to the line of prints left by the dog, the donkey, and
the holy man. Then came Podrick, and last of all Ser Hyle. A hundred yards out, Meribald turned
abruptly toward the south, so his back was almost to the septry. He proceeded in that direction
for another hundred yards, leading them between two shallow tidal pools. Dog stuck his nose in

one and yelped when a crab pinched it with his claw. A brief but furious struggle ensued before
the dog came trotting back, wet and mud-spattered, with the crab between his jaws.
Isnt that where we want to go? Ser Hyle called out from behind them, pointing at the septry.
We seem to be walking every way but toward it.
Faith, urged Septon Meribald. Believe, persist, and follow, and we shall find the peace we
seek.
The flats shimmered wetly all about them, mottled in half a hundred hues. The mud was such a
dark brown it appeared almost black, but there were swathes of golden sand as well, upthrust
rocks both grey and red, and tangles of black and green seaweed. Storks stalked through the tidal
pools and left their footprints all around them, and crabs scuttled across the surface of shallow
waters. The air smelled of brine and rot, and the ground sucked at their feet and let them go only
reluctantly, with a pop and a squelchy sigh. Septon Meribald turned and turned again and yet
again. His footprints filled up with water as soon as he moved on. By the time the ground grew
firmer and began to rise beneath the feet, they had walked at least a mile and a half.
Three men were waiting for them as they clambered up the broken stones that ringed the isles
shoreline. They were clad in the brown-and-dun robes of brothers, with wide bell sleeves and
pointed cowls. Two had wound lengths of wool about the lower halves of their faces as well, so
all that could be seen of them were their eyes. The third brother was the one to speak. Septon
Meribald, he called. It has been nigh upon a year. You are welcome. Your companions as
well.
Dog wagged his tail, and Meribald shook mud from his feet. Might we beg your hospitality for
a night?
Yes, of course. Theres to be fish stew this evening. Will you require the ferry in the
morning?
If it is not too much to ask. Meribald turned to his fellow travelers. Brother Narbert is a
proctor of the order, so he is allowed to speak one day of every seven. Brother, these good folk
helped me on my way. Ser Hyle Hunt is a gallant from the Reach. The lad is Podrick Payne, late
of the westerland. And this is Lady Brienne, known as the Maid of Tarth.
Brother Narbert drew up short. A woman.
Yes, brother. Brienne unpinned her hair and shook it out. Do you have no women here?
Not at present, said Narbert. Those women who do visit come to us sick or hurt, or heavy
with child. The Seven have blessed our Elder Brother with healing hands. He has restored many
a man to health that even the maesters could not cure, and many a woman too.
I am not sick or hurt or heavy with child.
Lady Brienne is a warrior maid, confided Septon Meribald, hunting for the Hound.
Aye? Narbert seemed taken aback. To what end?
Brienne touched Oathkeepers hilt. His, she said.
The proctor studied her. You are... brawny for a woman, it is true, but... mayhaps I should take
you up to Elder Brother. He will have seen you crossing the mud. Come.

Narbert led them along a pebbled path and through a grove of apple trees to a whitewashed
stable with a peaked thatch roof. You may leave your animals here. Brother Gillam will see that
they are fed and watered.
The stable was more than three-quarters empty. At one end were half a dozen mules, being
tended by a bandy-legged little brother whom Brienne took for Gillam. Way down at the far end,
well away from the other animals, a huge black stallion trumpeted at the sound of their voices
and kicked at the door of his stall.
Ser Hyle gave the big horse an admiring look as he was handing his reins to Brother Gillam. A
handsome beast.
Brother Narbert sighed. The Seven send us blessings, and the Seven send us trials. Handsome
he may be, but Driftwood was surely whelped in hell. When we sought to harness him to a plow
he kicked Brother Rawney and broke his shinbone in two places. We had hoped gelding might
improve the beasts ill temper, but... Brother Gillam, will you show them?
Brother Gillam lowered his cowl. Underneath he had a mop of blond hair, a tonsured scalp, and
a bloodstained bandage where he should have had an ear.
Podrick gasped. The horse bit off your ear?
Gillam nodded, and covered his head again.
Forgive me, brother, said Ser Hyle, but I might take the other ear, if you approached me
with a pair of shears.
The jest did not sit well with Brother Narbert. You are a knight, ser. Driftwood is a beast of
burden. The Smith gave men horses to help them in their labors. He turned away. If you will.
Elder Brother will no doubt be waiting.
The slope was steeper than it had looked from across the mudflats. To ease it, the brothers had
erected a flight of wooden steps that wandered back and forth across the hillside and amongst the
buildings. After a long day in the saddle Brienne was glad for a chance to stretch her legs.
They passed a dozen brothers of the order on their way up; cowled men in dun-and-brown who
gave them curious looks as they went by, but spoke no word of greeting. One was leading a pair
of milk cows toward a low barn roofed in sod; another worked a butter churn. On the upper
slopes they saw three boys driving sheep, and higher still they passed a lichyard where a brother
bigger than Brienne was struggling to dig a grave. From the way he moved, it was plain to see
that he was lame. As he flung a spadeful of the stony soil over one shoulder, some chanced to
spatter against their feet. Be more watchful there, chided Brother Narbert. Septon Meribald
might have gotten a mouthful of dirt. The gravedigger lowered his head. When Dog went to
sniff him he dropped his spade and scratched his ear.
A novice, explained Narbert.
Who is the grave for? asked Ser Hyle, as they resumed their climb up the wooden steps.
Brother Clement, may the Father judge him justly.
Was he old? asked Podrick Payne.

If you consider eight-and-forty old, aye, but it was not the years that killed him. He died of
wounds he got at Saltpans. He had taken some of our mead to the market there, on the day the
outlaws descended on the town.
The Hound? said Brienne.
Another, just as brutal. He cut poor Clements tongue out when he would not speak. Since he
had taken a vow of silence, the raider said he had no need of it. The Elder Brother will know
more. He keeps the worst of the tidings from outside to himself, so as not to disturb the
tranquillity of the septry. Many of our brothers came here to escape the horrors of the world, not
to dwell upon them. Brother Clement was not the only wounded man amongst us. Some wounds
do not show. Brother Narbert gestured to their right. There lies our summer arbor. The grapes
are small and tart, but make a drinkable wine. We brew our own ale as well, and our mead and
cider are far famed.
The war has never come here? Brienne said.
Not this war, praise the Seven. Our prayers protect us.
And your tides, suggested Meribald. Dog barked agreement.
The brow of the hill was crowned by a low wall of unmortared stone, encircling a cluster of
large buildings; the windmill, its sails creaking as they turned, the cloisters where the brothers
slept and the common hall where they took their meals, a wooden sept for prayer and meditation.
The sept had windows of leaded glass, wide doors carved with likenesses of the Mother and the
Father, and a seven-sided steeple with a walk on top. Behind it was a vegetable garden where
some older brothers were pulling weeds. Brother Narbert led the visitors around a chestnut tree
to a wooden door set in the side of the hill.
A cave with a door? Ser Hyle said, surprised.
Septon Meribald smiled. It is called the Hermits Hole. The first holy man to find his way here
lived therein, and worked such wonders that others came to join him. That was two thousand
years ago, they say. The door came somewhat later.
Perhaps two thousand years ago the Hermits Hole had been a damp, dark place, floored with
dirt and echoing to the sounds of dripping water, but no longer. The cave that Brienne and her
companions entered had been turned into a warm, snug sanctum. Woolen carpets covered the
ground, tapestries the walls. Tall beeswax candles gave more than ample light. The furnishings
were strange but simple; a long table, a settle, a chest, several tall cases full of books, and chairs.
All were made from driftwood, oddly shaped pieces cunningly joined together and polished till
they shone a deep gold in the candlelight.
The Elder Brother was not what Brienne had expected. He could hardly be called elder, for a
start; whereas the brothers weeding in the garden had had the stooped shoulders and bent backs
of old men, he stood straight and tall, and moved with the vigor of a man in the prime of his
years. Nor did he have the gentle, kindly face she expected of a healer. His head was large and
square, his eyes shrewd, his nose veined and red. Though he wore a tonsure, his scalp was as
stubbly as his heavy jaw.

He looks more like a man made to break bones than to heal one, thought the Maid of Tarth, as
the Elder Brother strode across the room to embrace Septon Meribald and pat Dog. It is always
a glad day when our friends Meribald and Dog honor us with another visit, he announced,
before turning to his other guests. And new faces are always welcome. We see so few of them.
Meribald performed the customary courtesies before seating himself upon the settle. Unlike
Septon Narbert, the Elder Brother did not seem dismayed by Briennes sex, but his smile did
flicker and fade when the septon told him why she and Ser Hyle had come. I see, was all he
said, before he turned away with, You must be thirsty. Please, have some of our sweet cider to
wash the dust of travel from your throats. He poured for them himself. The cups were carved
from driftwood too, no two the same. When Brienne complimented them, he said, My lady is
too kind. All we do is cut and polish the wood. We are blessed here. Where the river meets the
bay, the currents and the tides wrestle one against the other, and many strange and wondrous
things are pushed toward us, to wash up on our shores. Driftwood is the least of it. We have
found silver cups and iron pots, sacks of wool and bolts of silk, rusted helms and shining
swords... aye, and rubies.
That interested Ser Hyle. Rhaegars rubies?
It may be. Who can say? The battle was long leagues from here, but the river is tireless and
patient. Six have been found. We are all waiting for the seventh.
Better rubies than bones. Septon Meribald was rubbing his foot, the mud flaking off beneath
his finger. Not all the rivers gifts are pleasant. The good brothers collect the dead as well.
Drowned cows, drowned deer, dead pigs swollen up to half the size of horses. Aye, and corpses.
Too many corpses, these days. The Elder Brother sighed. Our gravedigger knows no rest.
Rivermen, westermen, northmen, all wash up here. Knights and knaves alike. We bury them side
by side, Stark and Lannister, Blackwood and Bracken, Frey and Darry. That is the duty the river
asks of us in return for all its gifts, and we do it as best we can. Sometimes we find a woman,
though... or worse, a little child. Those are the cruelest gifts. He turned to Septon Meribald. I
hope that you have time to absolve us of our sins. Since the raiders slew old Septon Bennet, we
have had no one to hear confession.
I shall make time, said Meribald, though I hope you have some better sins than the last time
I came through. Dog barked. You see? Even Dog was bored.
Podrick Payne was puzzled. I thought no one could talk. Well, not no one. The brothers. The
other brothers, not you.
We are allowed to break silence when confessing, said the Elder Brother. It is hard to speak
of sin with signs and nods.
Did they burn the sept at Saltpans? asked Hyle Hunt.
The smile vanished. They burned everything at Saltpans, save the castle. Only that was made
of stone... though it had as well been made of suet for all the good it did the town. It fell to me to
treat some of the survivors. The fisherfolk brought them across the bay to me after the flames
had gone out and they deemed it safe to land. One poor woman had been raped a dozen times,
and her breasts... my lady, you wear mans mail, so I shall not spare you these horrors... her

breasts had been torn and chewed and eaten, as if by some... cruel beast. I did what I could for
her, though that was little enough. As she lay dying, her worst curses were not for the men who
had raped her, nor the monster who devoured her living flesh, but for Ser Quincy Cox, who
barred his gates when the outlaws entered the town and sat safe behind stone walls as his people
screamed and died.
Ser Quincy is an old man, said Septon Meribald gently. His sons and good-sons are far away
or dead, his grandsons are still boys, and he has two daughters. What could he have done, one
man against so many?
He could have tried, Brienne thought. He could have died. Old or young, a true knight is sworn
to protect those who are weaker than himself, or die in the attempt.
True words, and wise, the Elder Brother said to Septon Meribald. When you cross to
Saltpans, no doubt Ser Quincy will ask you for forgiveness. I am glad that you are here to give it.
I could not. He put aside the driftwood cup, and stood. The supper bell will sound soon. My
friends, will you come with me to the sept, to pray for the souls of the good folk of Saltpans
before we sit down to break bread and share some meat and mead?
Gladly, said Meribald. Dog barked.
Their supper in the septry was as strange a meal as Brienne had ever eaten, though not at all
unpleasant. The food was plain, but very good; there were loaves of crusty bread still warm from
the ovens, crocks of fresh-churned butter, honey from the septrys hives, and a thick stew of
crabs, mussels, and at least three different kinds of fish. Septon Meribald and Ser Hyle drank the
mead the brothers made, and pronounced it excellent, whilst she and Podrick contented
themselves with more sweet cider. Nor was the meal a somber one. Meribald pronounced a
prayer before the food was served, and whilst the brothers ate at four long trestle tables, one of
their number played for them on the high harp, filling the hall with soft sweet sounds. When the
Elder Brother excused the musician to take his own meal, Brother Narbert and another proctor
took turns reading from The Seven-Pointed Star.
By the time the readings were completed, the last of the food had been cleared away by the
novices whose task it was to serve. Most were boys near Podricks age, or younger, but there
were grown men as well, amongst them the big gravedigger they had encountered on the hill,
who walked with the awkward lurching gait of one half-crippled. As the hall emptied, the Elder
Brother asked Narbert to show Podrick and Ser Hyle to their pallets in the cloisters. You will
not mind sharing a cell, I hope? It is not large, but you will find it comfortable.
I want to stay with ser, said Podrick. I mean, my lady.
What you and Lady Brienne may do elsewhere is between you and the Seven, said Brother
Narbert, but on the Quiet Isle, men and women do not sleep beneath the same roof unless they
are wed.
We have some modest cottages set aside for the women who visit us, be they noble ladies or
common village girls, said the Elder Brother. They are not oft used, but we keep them clean
and dry. Lady Brienne, would you allow me to show you the way?

Yes, thank you. Podrick, go with Ser Hyle. We are guests of the holy brothers here. Beneath
their roof, their rules.
The womens cottages were on the east side of the isle, looking out over a broad expanse of
mud and the distant waters of the Bay of Crabs. It was colder here than on the sheltered side, and
wilder. The hill was steeper, and the path meandered back and forth through weeds and briars,
wind-carved rocks, and twisted, thorny trees that clung tenaciously to the stony hillside. The
Elder Brother brought a lantern to light their way down. At one turn he paused. On a clear night
you could see the fires of Saltpans from here. Across the bay, just there. He pointed.
Theres nothing, Brienne said.
Only the castle remains. Even the fisherfolk are gone, the fortunate few who were out on the
water when the raiders came. They watched their houses burn and listened to screams and cries
float across the harbor, too fearful to land their boats. When at last they came ashore, it was to
bury friends and kin. What is there for them at Saltpans now but bones and bitter memories?
They have moved to Maidenpool or other towns. He gestured with the lantern, and they
resumed their descent. Saltpans was never an important port, but ships did call there from time
to time. That was what the raiders wanted, a galley or a cog to carry them across the narrow sea.
When none was at hand, they took their rage and desperation out upon the townsfolk. I wonder,
my lady... what do you hope to find there?
A girl, she told him. A highborn maid of three-and-ten, with a fair face and auburn hair.
Sansa Stark. The name was softly said. You believe this poor child is with the Hound?
The Dornishman said that she was on her way to Riverrun. Timeon. He was a sellsword, one
of the Brave Companions, a killer and a raper and a liar, but I do not think he lied about this. He
said that the Hound stole her and carried her away.
I see. The path turned, and there were the cottages ahead of them. The Elder Brother had
called them modest. That they were. They looked like beehives made of stone, low and rounded,
windowless. This one, he said, indicating the nearest cottage, the only one with smoke rising
from the smokehole in the center of its roof. Brienne had to duck when entering to keep from
banging her head against the lintel. Inside she found a dirt floor, a straw pallet, furs and blankets
to keep her warm, a basin of water, a flagon of cider, some bread and cheese, a small fire, and
two low chairs. The Elder Brother sat in one, and put the lantern down. May I stay a while? I
feel that we should talk.
If you wish. Brienne undid her swordbelt and hung it from the second chair, then sat cross-
legged on the pallet.
Your Dornishman did not lie, the Elder Brother began, but I fear you did not understand
him. You are chasing the wrong wolf, my lady. Eddard Stark had two daughters. It was the other
one that Sandor Clegane made off with, the younger one.
Arya Stark? Brienne stared open-mouthed, astonished. You know this? Lady Sansas sister
is alive?
Then, said the Elder Brother. Now... I do not know. She may have been amongst the
children slain at Saltpans.

The words were a knife in her belly. No, Brienne thought. No, that would be too cruel. May
have been... meaning that you are not certain... ?
I am certain that the child was with Sandor Clegane at the inn beside the crossroads, the one
old Masha Heddle used to keep, before the lions hanged her. I am certain they were on their way
to Saltpans. Beyond that... no. I do not know where she is, or even if she lives. There is one thing
I do know, however. The man you hunt is dead.
That was another shock. How did he die?
By the sword, as he had lived.
You know this for a certainty?
I buried him myself. I can tell you where his grave lies, if you wish. I covered him with stones
to keep the carrion eaters from digging up his flesh, and set his helm atop the cairn to mark his
final resting place. That was a grievous error. Some other wayfarer found my marker and
claimed it for himself. The man who raped and killed at Saltpans was not Sandor Clegane,
though he may be as dangerous. The riverlands are full of such scavengers. I will not call them
wolves. Wolves are nobler than that... and so are dogs, I think.
I know a little of this man, Sandor Clegane. He was Prince Joffreys sworn shield for many a
year, and even here we would hear tell of his deeds, both good and ill. If even half of what we
heard was true, this was a bitter, tormented soul, a sinner who mocked both gods and men. He
served, but found no pride in service. He fought, but took no joy in victory. He drank, to drown
his pain in a sea of wine. He did not love, nor was he loved himself. It was hate that drove him.
Though he committed many sins, he never sought forgiveness. Where other men dream of love,
or wealth, or glory, this man Sandor Clegane dreamed of slaying his own brother, a sin so
terrible it makes me shudder just to speak of it. Yet that was the bread that nourished him, the
fuel that kept his fires burning. Ignoble as it was, the hope of seeing his brothers blood upon his
blade was all this sad and angry creature lived for... and even that was taken from him, when
Prince Oberyn of Dorne stabbed Ser Gregor with a poisoned spear.
You sound as if you pity him, said Brienne.
I did. You would have pitied him as well, if you had seen him at the end. I came upon him by
the Trident, drawn by his cries of pain. He begged me for the gift of mercy, but I am sworn not to
kill again. Instead, I bathed his fevered brow with river water, and gave him wine to drink and a
poultice for his wound, but my efforts were too little and too late. The Hound died there, in my
arms. You may have seen a big black stallion in our stables. That was his warhorse, Stranger. A
blasphemous name. We prefer to call him Driftwood, as he was found beside the river. I fear he
has his former masters nature.
The horse. She had seen the stallion, had heard it kicking, but she had not understood. Destriers
were trained to kick and bite. In war they were a weapon, like the men who rode them. Like the
Hound. It is true, then, she said dully. Sandor Clegane is dead.
He is at rest. The Elder Brother paused. You are young, child. I have counted four-and-forty
name days... which makes me more than twice your age, I think. Would it surprise you to learn
that I was once a knight?

No. You look more like a knight than you do a holy man. It was written in his chest and
shoulders, and across that thick square jaw. Why would you give up knighthood?
I never chose it. My father was a knight, and his before him. So were my brothers, every one. I
was trained for battle since the day they deemed me old enough to hold a wooden sword. I saw
my share of them, and did not disgrace myself. I had women too, and there I did disgrace myself,
for some I took by force. There was a girl I wished to marry, the younger daughter of a petty
lord, but I was my fathers thirdborn son and had neither land nor wealth to offer her... only a
sword, a horse, a shield. All in all, I was a sad man. When I was not fighting, I was drunk. My
life was writ in red, in blood and wine.
When did it change? asked Brienne.
When I died in the Battle of the Trident. I fought for Prince Rhaegar, though he never knew
my name. I could not tell you why, save that the lord I served served a lord who served a lord
who had decided to support the dragon rather than the stag. Had he decided elsewise, I might
have been on the other side of the river. The battle was a bloody thing. The singers would have
us believe it was all Rhaegar and Robert struggling in the stream for a woman both of them
claimed to love, but I assure you, other men were fighting too, and I was one. I took an arrow
through the thigh and another through the foot, and my horse was killed from under me, yet I
fought on. I can still remember how desperate I was to find another horse, for I had no coin to
buy one, and without a horse I would no longer be a knight. That was all that I was thinking of, if
truth be told. I never saw the blow that felled me. I heard hooves behind my back and thought, a
horse! but before I could turn something slammed into my head and knocked me back into the
river, where by rights I should have drowned.
Instead I woke here, upon the Quiet Isle. The Elder Brother told me I had washed up on the
tide, naked as my name day. I can only think that someone found me in the shallows, stripped me
of my armor, boots, and breeches, and pushed me back out into the deeper water. The river did
the rest. We are all born naked, so I suppose it was only fitting that I come into my second life
the same way. I spent the next ten years in silence.
I see. Brienne did not know why he was telling her all of this, or what else she ought to say.
Do you? He leaned forward, his big hands on his knees. If so, give up this quest of yours.
The Hound is dead, and in any case he never had your Sansa Stark. As for this beast who wears
his helm, he will be found and hanged. The wars are ending, and these outlaws cannot survive
the peace. Randyll Tarly is hunting them from Maidenpool and Walder Frey from the Twins, and
there is a new young lord in Darry, a pious man who will surely set his lands to rights. Go home,
child. You have a home, which is more than many can say in these dark days. You have a noble
father who must surely love you. Consider his grief if you should never return. Perhaps they will
bring your sword and shield to him, after you have fallen. Perhaps he will even hang them in his
hall and look on them with pride... but if you were to ask him, I know he would tell you that he
would sooner have a living daughter than a shattered shield.
A daughter. Briennes eyes filled with tears. He deserves that. A daughter who could sing to
him and grace his hall and bear him grandsons. He deserves a son too, a strong and gallant son to

bring honor to his name. Galladon drowned when I was four and he was eight, though, and
Alysanne and Arianne died still in the cradle. I am the only child the gods let him keep. The
freakish one, not fit to be a son or daughter. All of it came pouring out of Brienne then, like
black blood from a wound; the betrayals and betrothals, Red Ronnet and his rose, Lord Renly
dancing with her, the wager for her maidenhead, the bitter tears she shed the night her king wed
Margaery Tyrell, the mle at Bitterbridge, the rainbow cloak that she had been so proud of, the
shadow in the kings pavilion, Renly dying in her arms, Riverrun and Lady Catelyn, the voyage
down the Trident, dueling Jaime in the woods, the Bloody Mummers, Jaime crying Sapphires,
Jaime in the tub at Harrenhal with steam rising from his body, the taste of Vargo Hoats blood
when she bit down on his ear, the bear pit, Jaime leaping down onto the sand, the long ride to
Kings Landing, Sansa Stark, the vow shed sworn to Jaime, the vow shed sworn to Lady
Catelyn, Oathkeeper, Duskendale, Maidenpool, Nimble Dick and Crackclaw and the Whispers,
the men shed killed...
I have to find her, she finished. There are others looking, all wanting to capture her and sell
her to the queen. I have to find her first. I promised Jaime. Oathkeeper, he named the sword. I
have to try to save her... or die in the attempt.

CERSEI
A thousand ships! The little queens brown hair was tousled and uncombed, and the
torchlight made her cheeks look flushed, as if she had just come from some mans embrace.
Your Grace, this must be answered fiercely! Her last word rang off the rafters and echoed
through the cavernous throne room.
Seated on her gold-and-crimson high seat beneath the Iron Throne, Cersei could feel a growing
tightness in her neck. Must, she thought. She dares say must to me. She itched to slap the
Tyrell girl across the face. She should be on her knees, begging for my help. Instead, she
presumes to tell her rightful queen what she must do.
A thousand ships? Ser Harys Swyft was wheezing. Surely not. No lord commands a
thousand ships.
Some frightened fool has counted double, agreed Orton Merryweather. That, or Lord
Tyrells bannermen are lying to us, puffing up the numbers of the foe so we will not think them
lax.
The torches on the back wall threw the long, barbed shadow of the Iron Throne halfway to the
doors. The far end of the hall was lost in darkness, and Cersei could not but feel that the shadows
were closing around her too. My enemies are everywhere, and my friends are useless. She had
only to glance at her councillors to know that; only Lord Qyburn and Aurane Waters seemed
awake. The others had been roused from bed by Margaerys messengers pounding on their doors,
and stood there rumpled and confused. Outside the night was black and still. The castle and the
city slept. Boros Blount and Meryn Trant seemed to be sleeping too, albeit on their feet. Even
Osmund Kettleblack was yawning. Not Loras, though. Not our Knight of Flowers. He stood
behind his little sister, a pale shadow with a longsword on his hip.
Half as many ships would still be five hundred, my lord, Waters pointed out to Orton
Merryweather. Only the Arbor has enough strength at sea to oppose a fleet that size.
What of your new dromonds? asked Ser Harys. The longships of the ironmen cannot stand
before our dromonds, surely? King Roberts Hammer is the mightiest warship in all Westeros.
She was, said Waters. Sweet Cersei will be her equal, once complete, and Lord Tywin will
be twice the size of either. Only half are fitted out, however, and none is fully crewed. Even
when they are, the numbers would be greatly against us. The common longship is small
compared to our galleys, this is true, but the ironmen have larger ships as well. Lord Balons
Great Kraken and the warships of the Iron Fleet were made for battle, not for raids. They are the
equal of our lesser war galleys in speed and strength, and most are better crewed and captained.
The ironmen live their whole lives at sea.
Robert should have scoured the isles after Balon Greyjoy rose against him, Cersei thought. He
smashed their fleet, burned their towns, and broke their castles, but when he had them on their
knees he let them up again. He should have made another island of their skulls. That was what
her father would have done, but Robert never had the stomach that a king requires if he hopes to

keep peace in the realm. The ironmen have not dared raid the Reach since Dagon Greyjoy sat
the Seastone Chair, she said. Why would they do so now? What has emboldened them?
Their new king. Qyburn stood with his hands hidden up his sleeves. Lord Balons brother.
The Crows Eye, he is called.
Carrion crows make their feasts upon the carcasses of the dead and dying, said Grand
Maester Pycelle. They do not descend upon hale and healthy animals. Lord Euron will gorge
himself on gold and plunder, aye, but as soon as we move against him he will back to Pyke, as
Lord Dagon was wont to do in his day.
You are wrong, said Margaery Tyrell. Reavers do not come in such strength. A thousand
ships! Lord Hewett and Lord Chester are slain, as well as Lord Serrys son and heir. Serry has
fled to Highgarden with what few ships remain him, and Lord Grimm is a prisoner in his own
castle. Willas says that the iron king has raised up four lords of his own in their places.
Willas, Cersei thought, the cripple. He is to blame for this. That oaf Mace Tyrell left the
defense of the Reach in the hands of a hapless weakling. It is a long voyage from the Iron Isles
to the Shields, she pointed out. How could a thousand ships come all that way without being
seen?
Willas believes that they did not follow the coast, said Margaery. They made the voyage out
of sight of land, sailing far out into the Sunset Sea and swooping back in from the west.
More like the cripple did not have his watchtowers manned, and now he fears to have us know
it. The little queen is making excuses for her brother. Cerseis mouth was dry. I need a cup of
Arbor gold. If the ironmen decided to take the Arbor next, the whole realm might soon be going
thirsty. Stannis may have had a hand in this. Balon Greyjoy offered my lord father an alliance.
Perhaps his son has offered one to Stannis.
Pycelle frowned. What would Lord Stannis gain by...
He gains another foothold. And plunder, that as well. Stannis needs gold to pay his sellswords.
By raiding in the west, he hopes he can distract us from Dragonstone and Storms End.
Lord Merryweather nodded. A diversion. Stannis is more cunning than we knew. Your Grace
is clever to have seen through his ploy.
Lord Stannis is striving to win the northmen to his cause, said Pycelle. If he befriends the
ironborn, he cannot hope...
The northmen will not have him, said Cersei, wondering how such a learned man could be so
stupid. Lord Manderly hacked the head and hands off the onion knight, we have that from the
Freys, and half a dozen other northern lords have rallied to Lord Bolton. The enemy of my
enemy is my friend. Where else can Stannis turn, but to the ironmen and the wildlings, the
enemies of the north? But if he thinks that I am going to walk into his trap, he is a bigger fool
than you. She turned back to the little queen. The Shield Islands belong to the Reach. Grimm
and Serry and the rest are sworn to Highgarden. It is for Highgarden to answer this.
Highgarden shall answer, said Margaery Tyrell. Willas has sent word to Leyton Hightower
in Oldtown, so he can see to his own defenses. Garlan is gathering men to retake the isles. The

best part of our power remains with my lord father, though. We must send word to him at
Storms End. At once.
And lift the siege? Cersei did not care for Margaerys presumption. She says at once to me.
Does she take me for her handmaid? I have no doubt that Lord Stannis would be pleased by
that. Have you been listening, my lady? If he can draw our eyes away from Dragonstone and
Storms End to these rocks...
Rocks? gasped Margaery. Did Your Grace say rocks?
The Knight of Flowers put a hand upon his sisters shoulder. If it please Your Grace, from
those rocks the ironmen threaten Oldtown and the Arbor. From strongholds on the Shields,
raiders can sail up the Mander into the very heart of the Reach, as they did of old. With enough
men they might even threaten Highgarden.
Truly? said the queen, all innocence. Why then, your brave brothers had best roust them off
those rocks, and quickly.
How would the queen suggest they accomplish that, without sufficient ships? asked Ser
Loras. Willas and Garlan can raise ten thousand men within a fortnight and twice that in a
moons turn, but they cannot walk on water, Your Grace.
Highgarden sits above the Mander, Cersei reminded him. You and your vassals command a
thousand leagues of coast. Are there no fisherfolk along your shores? Do you have no pleasure
barges, no ferries, no river galleys, no skiffs?
Many and more, Ser Loras admitted.
Such should be more than sufficient to carry a host across a little stretch of water, I would
think.
And when the longships of the ironborn descend upon our ragtag fleet as it is making its way
across this little stretch of water, what would Your Grace have us do then?
Drown, thought Cersei. Highgarden has gold as well. You have my leave to hire sellsails from
beyond the narrow sea.
Pirates out of Myr and Lys, you mean? Loras said with contempt. The scum of the Free
Cities?
He is as insolent as his sister. Sad to say, all of us must deal with scum from time to time, she
said with poisonous sweetness. Perhaps you have a better notion?
Only the Arbor has sufficient galleys to retake the mouth of the Mander from the ironmen and
protect my brothers from their longships during their crossing. I beg Your Grace, send word to
Dragonstone and command Lord Redwyne to raise his sails at once.
At least he has the sense to beg. Paxter Redwyne owned two hundred warships, and five times
as many merchant carracks, wine cogs, trading galleys, and whalers. Redwyne was encamped
beneath the walls of Dragonstone, however, and the greater part of his fleet was engaged in
ferrying men across Blackwater Bay for the assault on that island stronghold. The remainder
prowled Shipbreaker Bay to the south, where only their presence prevented Storms End from
being resupplied by sea.

Aurane Waters bristled at Ser Lorass suggestion. If Lord Redwyne sails his ships away, how
are we to supply our men on Dragonstone? Without the Arbors galleys, how will we maintain
the siege of Storms End?
The siege can be resumed later, after
Cersei cut him off. Storms End is a hundred times more valuable than the Shields, and
Dragonstone... so long as Dragonstone remains in the hands of Stannis Baratheon, it is a knife at
my sons throat. We will release Lord Redwyne and his fleet when the castle falls. The queen
pushed herself to her feet. This audience is at an end. Grand Maester Pycelle, a word.
The old man started, as if her voice had woken him from some dream of youth, but before he
could answer, Loras Tyrell strode forward, so swiftly that the queen drew back in alarm. She was
about to shout for Ser Osmund to defend her when the Knight of Flowers sank to one knee.
Your Grace, let me take Dragonstone.
His sisters hand went to her mouth. Loras, no.
Ser Loras ignored her plea. It will take half a year or more to starve Dragonstone into
submission, as Lord Paxter means to do. Give me the command, Your Grace. The castle will be
yours within a fortnight if I have to tear it down with my bare hands.
No one had given Cersei such a lovely gift since Sansa Stark had run to her to divulge Lord
Eddards plans. She was pleased to see that Margaery had gone pale. Your courage takes my
breath away, Ser Loras, Cersei said. Lord Waters, are any of the new dromonds fit to put to
sea?
Sweet Cersei is, Your Grace. A swift ship, and as strong as the queen shes named for.
Splendid. Let Sweet Cersei carry our Knight of Flowers to Dragonstone at once. Ser Loras, the
command is yours. Swear to me that you shall not return until Dragonstone is Tommens.
I shall, Your Grace. He rose.
Cersei kissed him on both cheeks. She kissed his sister too, and whispered, You have a gallant
brother. Either Margaery did not have the grace to answer or fear had stolen all her words.
Dawn was still several hours away when Cersei slipped out the kings door behind the Iron
Throne. Ser Osmund went before her with a torch and Qyburn strolled along beside her. Pycelle
had to struggle to keep up. If it please Your Grace, he puffed, young men are overbold, and
think only of the glory of battle and never of its dangers. Ser Loras... this plan of his is fraught
with peril. To storm the very walls of Dragonstone...
... is very brave.
... brave, yes, but...
I have no doubt that our Knight of Flowers will be the first man to gain the battlements. And
perhaps the first to fall. The pox-scarred bastard that Stannis had left to hold his castle was no
callow tourney champion but a seasoned killer. If the gods were good, he would give Ser Loras
the glorious end he seemed to want. Assuming the boy does not drown on the way. There had
been another storm last night, a savage one. The rain had come down in black sheets for hours.
And wouldnt that be sad? the queen mused. Drowning is ordinary. Ser Loras lusts for glory as
real men lust for women, the least the gods can do is grant him a death worthy of a song.

No matter what befell the boy on Dragonstone, however, the queen would be the winner. If
Loras took the castle, Stannis would suffer a grievous blow, and the Redwyne fleet could sail off
to meet the ironmen. If he failed, she would see to it that he had the lions share of the blame.
Nothing tarnishes a hero as much as failure. And if he should come home on his shield, covered
in blood and glory, Ser Osney will be there to console his grieving sister.
The laugh would not be contained any longer. It burst from Cerseis lips, and echoed down the
hall.
Your Grace? Grand Maester Pycelle blinked, his mouth sagging open. Why... why would
you laugh?
Why, she had to say, elsewise I might weep. My heart is bursting with love for our Ser
Loras and his valor.
She left the Grand Maester on the serpentine steps. That one has outlived any usefulness he
ever had, the queen decided. All Pycelle ever seemed to do of late was plague her with cautions
and objections. He had even objected to the understanding she had reached with the High
Septon, gaping at her with dim and rheumy eyes when she commanded him to prepare the
necessary papers and babbling about old dead history until Cersei cut him off. King Maegors
day is done, and so are his decrees, she said firmly. This is King Tommens day, and mine. I
would have done better to let him perish in the black cells.
Should Ser Loras fall, Your Grace will need to find another worthy for the Kingsguard, Lord
Qyburn said as they crossed over the spiked moat that girded Maegors Holdfast.
Someone splendid, she agreed. Someone so young and swift and strong that Tommen will
forget all about Ser Loras. A bit of gallantry would not be amiss, but his head should not be full
of foolish notions. Do you know of such a man?
Alas, no, said Qyburn. I had another sort of champion in mind. What he lacks in gallantry he
will give you tenfold in devotion. He will protect your son, kill your enemies, and keep your
secrets, and no living man will be able to withstand him.
So you say. Words are wind. When the hour is ripe, you may produce this paragon of yours
and we will see if he is all that you have promised.
They will sing of him, I swear it. Lord Qyburns eyes crinkled with amusement. Might I ask
about the armor?
I have placed your order. The armorer thinks that I am mad. He assures me that no man is
strong enough to move and fight in such a weight of plate. Cersei gave the chainless maester a
warning look. Play me for a fool, and youll die screaming. You are aware of that, I trust?
Always, Your Grace.
Good. Say no more of this.
The queen is wise. These walls have ears.
So they do. At night Cersei sometimes heard soft sounds, even in her own apartments. Mice
in the walls, she would tell herself, no more than that.
A candle was burning by her bedside, but the hearthfire had gone out and there was no other
light. The room was cold as well. Cersei undressed and slipped beneath the blankets, leaving her

gown to puddle on the floor. Across the bed, Taena stirred. Your Grace, she murmured softly.
What hour is it?
The hour of the owl, the queen replied.
Though Cersei often slept alone, she had never liked it. Her oldest memories were of sharing a
bed with Jaime, when they had still been so young that no one could tell the two of them apart.
Later, after they were separated, shed had a string of bedmaids and companions, most of them
girls of an age with her, the daughters of her fathers household knights and bannermen. None
had pleased her, and few lasted very long. Little sneaks, the lot of them. Vapid, weepy creatures,
always telling tales and trying to worm their way between me and Jaime. Still, there had been
nights deep within the black bowels of the Rock when she had welcomed their warmth beside
her. An empty bed was a cold bed.
Here most of all. There were chills in this room, and her wretched royal husband had died
beneath this canopy. Robert Baratheon, the First of His Name, may there never be a second. A
dim, drunken brute of a man. Let him weep in hell. Taena warmed the bed as well as Robert ever
had, and never tried to force Cerseis legs apart. Of late she had shared the queens bed more
often than Lord Merryweathers. Orton did not seem to mind... or if he did, he knew better than
to say so.
I was concerned when I woke and found you gone, murmured Lady Merryweather, sitting up
against the pillows, the coverlets tangled about her waist. Is aught amiss?
No, said Cersei, all is well. On the morrow Ser Loras will sail for Dragonstone, to win the
castle, loose the Redwyne fleet, and prove his manhood to us all. She told the Myrish woman all
that had occurred beneath the shifting shadow of the Iron Throne. Without her valiant brother,
our little queen is next to naked. She has her guards, to be sure, but I have their captain here and
there about the castle. A garrulous old man with a squirrel on his surcoat. Squirrels run from
lions. He does not have it in him to defy the Iron Throne.
Margaery has other swords about her, cautioned Lady Merryweather. She has made many
friends about the court, and she and her young cousins all have admirers.
A few suitors do not concern me, Cersei said. The army at Storms End, however...
What do you mean to do, Your Grace?
Why do you ask? The question was a little too pointed for Cerseis taste. I do hope you are
not thinking of sharing my idle musings with our poor little queen?
Never. I am not that girl Senelle.
Cersei did not care to think about Senelle. She repaid my kindness with betrayal. Sansa Stark
had done the same. So had Melara Hetherspoon and fat Jeyne Farman when the three of them
were girls. I would never have gone into that tent if not for them. I would never have allowed
Maggy the Frog to taste my morrows in a drop of blood. I would be very sad if you ever
betrayed my trust, Taena. I would have no choice but to give you to Lord Qyburn, but I know
that I should weep.
I will never give you cause to weep, Your Grace. If I do, say the word, and I will give myself
to Qyburn. I want only to be close to you. To serve you, however you require.

And for this service, what reward will you expect?
Nothing. It pleases me to please you. Taena rolled onto her side, her olive skin shining in the
candlelight. Her breasts were larger than the queens and tipped with huge nipples, black as horn.
She is younger than I am. Her breasts have not begun to sag. Cersei wondered what it would feel
like to kiss another woman. Not lightly on the cheek, as was common courtesy amongst ladies of
high birth, but full upon the lips. Taenas lips were very full. She wondered what it would feel
like to suckle on those breasts, to lay the Myrish woman on her back and push her legs apart and
use her as a man would use her, the way Robert would use her when the drink was in him, and
she was unable to bring him off with hand or mouth.
Those had been the worst nights, lying helpless underneath him as he took his pleasure, stinking
of wine and grunting like a boar. Usually he rolled off and went to sleep as soon as it was done,
and was snoring before his seed could dry upon her thighs. She was always sore afterward, raw
between the legs, her breasts painful from the mauling he would give them. The only time hed
ever made her wet was on their wedding night.
Robert had been handsome enough when they first married, tall and strong and powerful, but
his hair was black and heavy, thick on his chest and coarse around his sex. The wrong man came
back from the Trident, the queen would sometimes think as he was plowing her. In the first few
years, when he mounted her more often, she would close her eyes and pretend that he was
Rhaegar. She could not pretend that he was Jaime; he was too different, too unfamiliar. Even the
smell of him was wrong.
For Robert, those nights never happened. Come morning he remembered nothing, or so he
would have had her believe. Once, during the first year of their marriage, Cersei had voiced her
displeasure the next day. You hurt me, she complained. He had the grace to look ashamed. It
was not me, my lady, he said in a sulky sullen tone, like a child caught stealing apple cakes
from the kitchen. It was the wine. I drink too much wine. To wash down his admission, he
reached for his horn of ale. As he raised it to his mouth, she smashed her own horn in his face, so
hard she chipped a tooth. Years later at a feast, she heard him telling a serving wench how hed
cracked the tooth in a mle. Well, our marriage was a mle, she reflected, so he did not lie.
The rest had all been lies, though. He did remember what he did to her at night, she was
convinced of that. She could see it in his eyes. He only pretended to forget; it was easier to do
that than to face his shame. Deep down Robert Baratheon was a coward. In time the assaults did
grow less frequent. During the first year he took her at least once a fortnight; by the end it was
not even once a year. He never stopped completely, though. Sooner or later there would always
come a night when he would drink too much and want to claim his rights. What shamed him in
the light of day gave him pleasure in the darkness.
My queen? said Taena Merryweather. You have a strange look in your eyes. Are you
unwell?
I was just... remembering. Her throat was dry. You are a good friend, Taena. I have not had
a true friend in...
Someone hammered at the door.

Again? The urgency of the sound made her shiver. Have another thousand ships descended on
us? She slipped into a bedrobe and went to see who it was. Beg pardon for disturbing you, Your
Grace, the guardsman said, but Lady Stokeworth is below, begging audience.
At this hour? snapped Cersei. Has Falyse lost her wits? Tell her I have retired. Tell her that
smallfolk on the Shields are being slaughtered. Tell her that I have been awake for half the night.
I will see her on the morrow.
The guard hesitated. If it please Your Grace, shes... shes not in a good way, if you take my
meaning.
Cersei frowned. She had assumed Falyse was here to tell her that Bronn was dead. Very well. I
shall need to dress. Take her to my solar and have her wait. When Lady Merryweather made to
rise and come with her, the queen demurred. No, stay. One of us should get some rest, at least. I
shant be long.
Lady Falyses face was bruised and swollen, her eyes red from her tears. Her lower lip was
broken, her clothing soiled and torn. Gods be good, Cersei said as she ushered her into the
solar and closed the door. What has happened to your face?
Falyse did not seem to hear the question. He killed him, she said in a quavery voice. Mother
have mercy, he... he... She broke down sobbing, her whole body trembling.
Cersei poured a cup of wine and took it to the weeping woman. Drink this. The wine will calm
you. Thats it. A little more now. Stop that weeping and tell me why youre here.
It took the rest of the flagon before the queen was finally able to coax the whole sad tale out of
Lady Falyse. Once she had, she did not know whether to laugh or rage. Single combat, she
repeated. Is there no one in the Seven Kingdoms that I can rely upon? Am I the only one in
Westeros with a pinch of wits? You are telling me Ser Balman challenged Bronn to single
combat?
He said it would be s-s-simple. The lance is a kn-knights weapon, he said, and B-Bronn was
no true knight. Balman said he would unhorse him and finish him as he lay st-st-stunned.
Bronn was no knight, that was true. Bronn was a battle-hardened killer. Your cretin of a
husband wrote his own death warrant. A splendid plan. Dare I ask how it went awry?
B-Bronn drove his lance through the chest of Balmans poor h-h-h-horse. Balman, he... his
legs were crushed when the beast fell. He screamed so piteously...
Sellswords have no pity, Cersei might have said. I asked you to arrange a hunting mishap. An
arrow gone astray, a fall from a horse, an angry boar... there are so many ways a man can die in
the woods. None of them involving lances.
Falyse did not seem to hear her. When I tried to run to my Balman, he, he, he struck me in the
face. He made my lord c-c-confess. Balman was crying out for Maester Frenken to attend him,
but the sellsword, he, he, he...
Confess? Cersei did not like that word. I trust our brave Ser Balman held his tongue.
Bronn put a dagger in his eye, and told me I had best be gone from Stokeworth before the sun
went down or Id get the same. He said hed pass me around to the g-g-garrison, if any of them
would have me. When I ordered Bronn seized, one of his knights had the insolence to say that I

should do as Lord Stokeworth said. He called him Lord Stokeworth! Lady Falyse clutched at
the queens hand. Your Grace must give me knights. A hundred knights! And crossbowmen, to
take my castle back. Stokeworth is mine! They would not even permit me to gather up my
clothes! Bronn said they were his wifes clothes now, all my s-silks and velvets.
Your rags are the least of your concern. The queen pulled her fingers free of the other womans
clammy grasp. I asked you to snuff out a candle to help protect the king. Instead you heaved a
pot of wildfire at it. Did your witless Balman bring my name into this? Tell me he did not.
Falyse licked her lips. He... he was in pain, his legs were broken. Bronn said he would show
him mercy, but... What will happen to my poor m-m-mother?
I imagine she will die. What do you think? Lady Tanda might well be dead already. Bronn
did not seem the sort of man who would expend much effort nursing an old woman with a
broken hip.
You have to help me. Where am I to go? What will I do?
Perhaps you might wed Moon Boy, Cersei almost said. He is nigh as big a fool as your late
husband. She could not risk a war on the very doorstep of Kings Landing, not now. The silent
sisters are always glad to welcome widows, she said. Theirs is a serene life, a life of prayer and
contemplation and good works. They bring solace to the living and peace to the dead. And they
do not talk. She could not have the woman running about the Seven Kingdoms spreading
dangerous tales.
Falyse was deaf to good sense. All we did, we did in service to Your Grace. Proud to Be
Faithful. You said...
I recall. Cersei forced a smile. You shall stay here with us, my lady, until such time as we
find a way to win your castle back. Let me pour you another cup of wine. It will help you sleep.
You are weary and sick of heart, thats plain to see. My poor dear Falyse. Thats it, drink up.
As her guest was working on the flagon, Cersei went to the door and called her maids. She told
Dorcas to find Lord Qyburn for her and bring him here at once. Jocelyn Swyft she dispatched to
the kitchens. Bring bread and cheese, a meat pie and some apples. And wine. We have a thirst.
Qyburn arrived before the food. Lady Falyse had put down three more cups by then, and was
beginning to nod, though from time to time she would rouse and give another sob. The queen
took Qyburn aside and told him of Ser Balmans folly. I cannot have Falyse spreading tales
about the city. Her grief has made her witless. Do you still need women for your... work?
I do, Your Grace. The puppeteers are quite used up.
Take her and do with her as you will, then. But once she goes down into the black cells... need
I say more?
No, Your Grace. I understand.
Good. The queen donned her smile once again. Sweet Falyse, Maester Qyburns here. Hell
help you rest.
Oh, said Falyse vaguely. Oh, good.
When the door closed behind them Cersei poured herself another cup of wine. I am surrounded
by enemies and imbeciles, she said. She could not even trust to her own blood and kin, nor

Jaime, who had once been her other half. He was meant to be my sword and shield, my strong
right arm. Why does he insist on vexing me?
Bronn was no more than an annoyance, to be sure. She had never truly believed that he was
harboring the Imp. Her twisted little brother was too clever to allow Lollys to name her wretched
ill-begotten bastard after him, knowing it was sure to draw the queens wroth down upon her.
Lady Merryweather had pointed that out, and she was right. The mockery was almost certainly
the sellswords doing. She could picture him watching his wrinkled red stepson sucking on one
of Lollyss swollen dugs, a cup of wine in his hand and an insolent smile on his face. Grin all
you wish, Ser Bronn, youll be screaming soon enough. Enjoy your lackwit lady and your stolen
castle whilst you can. When the time comes, I shall swat you as if you were a fly. Perhaps she
would send Loras Tyrell to do the swatting, if the Knight of Flowers should somehow return
alive from Dragonstone. That would be delicious. If the gods were good, each of them would kill
the other, like Ser Arryk and Ser Erryk. As for Stokeworth... no, she was sick of thinking about
Stokeworth.
Taena had drifted back to sleep by the time the queen returned to the bedchamber, her head
spinning. Too much wine and too little sleep, she told herself. It was not every night that she was
awakened twice with such desperate tidings. At least I could awaken. Robert would have been
too drunk to rise, let alone rule. It would have fallen to Jon Arryn to deal with all of this. It
pleased her to think that she made a better king than Robert.
The sky outside the window was already beginning to lighten. Cersei sat on the bed beside
Lady Merryweather, listening to her soft breathing, watching her breasts rise and fall. Does she
dream of Myr? she wondered. Or is it her lover with the scar, the dangerous dark-haired man
who would not be refused? She was quite certain Taena was not dreaming of Lord Orton.
Cersei cupped the other womans breast. Softly at first, hardly touching, feeling the warmth of
it beneath her palm, the skin as smooth as satin. She gave it a gentle squeeze, then ran her
thumbnail lightly across the big dark nipple, back and forth and back and forth until she felt it
stiffen. When she glanced up, Taenas eyes were open. Does that feel good? she asked.
Yes, said Lady Merryweather.
And this? Cersei pinched the nipple now, pulling on it hard, twisting it between her fingers.
The Myrish woman gave a gasp of pain. Youre hurting me.
Its just the wine. I had a flagon with my supper, and another with the widow Stokeworth. I
had to drink to keep her calm. She twisted Taenas other nipple too, pulling until the other
woman gasped. I am the queen. I mean to claim my rights.
Do what you will. Taenas hair was as black as Roberts, even down between her legs, and
when Cersei touched her there she found her hair all sopping wet, where Roberts had been
coarse and dry. Please, the Myrish woman said, go on, my queen. Do as you will with me.
Im yours.
But it was no good. She could not feel it, whatever Robert felt on the nights he took her. There
was no pleasure in it, not for her. For Taena, yes. Her nipples were two black diamonds, her sex
slick and steamy. Robert would have loved you, for an hour. The queen slid a finger into that

Myrish swamp, then another, moving them in and out, but once he spent himself inside you, he
would have been hard-pressed to recall your name.
She wanted to see if it would be as easy with a woman as it had always been with Robert. Ten
thousand of your children perished in my palm, Your Grace, she thought, slipping a third finger
into Myr. Whilst you snored, I would lick your sons off my face and fingers one by one, all those
pale sticky princes. You claimed your rights, my lord, but in the darkness I would eat your heirs.
Taena gave a shudder. She gasped some words in a foreign tongue, then shuddered again and
arched her back and screamed. She sounds as if she is being gored, the queen thought. For a
moment she let herself imagine that her fingers were a bores tusks, ripping the Myrish woman
apart from groin to throat.
It was still no good.
It had never been any good with anyone but Jaime.
When she tried to take her hand away, Taena caught it and kissed her fingers. Sweet queen,
how shall I pleasure you? She slid her hand down Cerseis side and touched her sex. Tell me
what you would have of me, my love.
Leave me. Cersei rolled away and pulled up the bedclothes to cover herself, shivering. Dawn
was breaking. It would be morning soon, and all of this would be forgotten.
It had never happened.

JAIME
The trumpets made a brazen blare, and cut the still blue air of dusk. Josmyn Peckledon
was on his feet at once, scrambling for his masters swordbelt.
The boy has good instincts. Outlaws dont blow trumpets to herald their arrival, Jaime told
him. I shant need my sword. That will be my cousin, the Warden of the West.
The riders were dismounting when he emerged from his tent; half a dozen knights, and
twoscore mounted archers and men-at-arms. Jaime! roared a shaggy man clad in gilded
ringmail and a fox-fur cloak. So gaunt, and all in white! And bearded too!
This? Mere stubble, against that mane of yours, coz. Ser Davens bristling beard and bushy
mustache grew into sidewhiskers as thick as a hedgerow, and those into the tangled yellow
thicket atop his head, matted down by the helm he was removing. Somewhere in the midst of all
that hair lurked a pug nose and a pair of lively hazel eyes. Did some outlaw steal your razor?
I vowed I would not let my hair be cut until my father was avenged. For a man who looked so
leonine, Daven Lannister sounded oddly sheepish. The Young Wolf got to Karstark first,
though. Robbed me of my vengeance. He handed his helm to a squire and pushed his fingers
through his hair where the weight of the steel had crushed it down. I like a bit of hair. The
nights grow colder, and a little foliage helps to keep your face warm. Aye, and Aunt Genna
always said I had a brick for a chin. He clasped Jaime by the arms. We feared for you after the
Whispering Wood. Heard Starks direwolf tore out your throat.
Did you weep bitter tears for me, coz?
Half of Lannisport was mourning. The female half. Ser Davens gaze went to Jaimes stump.
So its true. The bastards took your sword hand.
I have a new one, made of gold. Theres much to be said for being one-handed. I drink less
wine for fear of spilling and am seldom inclined to scratch my arse at court.
Aye, theres that. Maybe I should have mine off as well. His cousin laughed. Was it Catelyn
Stark who took it?
Vargo Hoat. Where do these tales come from?
The Qohorik? Ser Daven spat. Thats for him and all his Brave Companions. I told your
father I would forage for him, but he refused me. Some tasks are fit for lions, he said, but
foraging is best left for goats and dogs.
Lord Tywins very words, Jaime knew; he could almost hear his fathers voice. Come inside,
coz. We need to talk.
Garrett had lit the braziers, and their glowing coals filled Jaimes tent with a ruddy heat. Ser
Daven shrugged out of his cloak and tossed it at Little Lew. You a Piper, boy? he growled.
You have a runty look to you.
Im Lewys Piper, if it please my lord.
I beat your brother bloody in a mle once. The runty little fool took offense when I asked him
if that was his sister dancing naked on his shield.
Shes the sigil of our House. We dont have a sister.

Mores the pity. Your sigil has nice teats. What sort of man hides behind a naked woman,
though? Every time I thumped your brothers shield, I felt unchivalrous.
Enough, said Jaime, laughing. Leave him be. Pia was mulling wine for them, stirring the
kettle with a spoon. I need to know what I can expect to find at Riverrun.
His cousin shrugged. The siege drags on. The Blackfish sits inside the castle, we sit outside in
our camps. Bloody boring, if you want the truth. Ser Daven seated himself upon a camp stool.
Tully ought to make a sortie, to remind us all were still at war. Be nice if he culled some Freys
too. Ryman, for a start. The mans drunk more oft than not. Oh, and Edwyn. Not as thick as his
father, but as full of hate as a boils full of pus. And our own Ser Emmon... no, Lord Emmon,
Seven save us, must not forget his new title... our Lord of Riverrun does nought but try to tell me
how to run the siege. He wants me to take the castle without damaging it, since it is now his
lordly seat.
Is that wine hot yet? Jaime asked Pia.
Yes, mlord. The girl covered her mouth when she spoke. Peck served the wine on a golden
platter. Ser Daven pulled off his gloves and took a cup. Thank you, boy. Who might you be?
Josmyn Peckledon, if it please my lord.
Peck was a hero on the Blackwater, Jaime said. He slew two knights and captured two
more.
You must be more dangerous than you look, lad. Is that a beard, or did you forget to wash the
dirt off your face? Stannis Baratheons wife has a thicker mustache. How old are you?
Fifteen, ser.
Ser Daven snorted. You know the best thing about heroes, Jaime? They all die young and
leave more women for the rest of us. He tossed the cup back to the squire. Fill that full again,
and Ill call you hero too. I have a thirst.
Jaime lifted his own cup left-handed and took a swallow. The warmth spread through his chest.
You were speaking of the Freys you wanted dead. Ryman, Edwyn, Emmon...
And Walder Rivers, Daven said, that whoreson. Hates that hes a bastard, and hates
everyone whos not. Ser Perwyn seems a decent fellow, though, might as well spare him. The
women too. Im to marry one, I hear. Your father might have seen fit to consult with me about
this marriage, by the bye. My own father was treating with Paxter Redwyne before Oxcross, did
you know? Redwyne has a nicely dowered daughter...
Desmera? Jaime laughed. How well do you like freckles?
If my choice is Freys or freckles, well... half of Lord Walders brood look like stoats.
Only half? Be thankful. I saw Lancels bride at Darry.
Gatehouse Ami, gods be good. I couldnt believe that Lancel picked that one. Whats wrong
with that boy?
Hes grown pious, said Jaime, but it wasnt him who did the picking. Lady Amereis mother
is a Darry. Our uncle thought shed help Lancel win the Darry smallfolk.
How, by fucking them? You know why they call her Gatehouse Ami? She raises her portcullis
for every knight who happens by. Lancel had best find an armorer to make him a horned helm.

That wont be necessary. Our coz is off to Kings Landing to take vows as one of the High
Septons swords.
Ser Daven could not have looked more astonished if Jaime had told him that Lancel had
decided to become a mummers monkey. Not truly? You are japing with me. Gatehouse Ami
must be more stoatish than Id heard if she could drive the boy to that.
When Jaime had taken his leave of Lady Amerei, she had been weeping softly at the dissolution
of her marriage whilst letting Lyle Crakehall console her. Her tears had not troubled him half so
much as the hard looks on the faces of her kin as they stood about the yard. I hope you do not
intend to take vows as well, coz, he said to Daven. The Freys are prickly where marriage
contracts are concerned. I would hate to disappoint them again.
Ser Daven snorted. Ill wed and bed my stoat, never fear. I know what happened to Robb
Stark. From what Edwyn tells me, though, Id best pick one who hasnt flowered yet, or Im like
to find that Black Walder has been there first. Ill wager hes had Gatehouse Ami, and more than
thrice. Maybe that explains Lancels godliness, and his fathers mood.
You have seen Ser Kevan?
Aye. He passed here on his way west. I asked him to help us take the castle, but Kevan would
have none of it. He brooded the whole time he was here. Courteous enough, but chilly. I swore to
him that I never asked to be made Warden of the West, that the honor should have gone to him,
and he declared that he held no grudge against me, but you would never have known it from his
tone. He stayed three days and hardly said three words to me. Would that hed remained, I could
have used his counsel. Our friends of Frey would not have dared vex Ser Kevan the way that
theyve been vexing me.
Tell me, said Jaime.
I would, but where to begin? Whilst Ive been building rams and siege towers, Ryman Frey
has raised a gibbet. Every day at dawn he brings forth Edmure Tully, drapes a noose around his
neck, and threatens to hang him unless the castle yields. The Blackfish pays his mummers show
no mind, so come evenfall Lord Edmure is taken down again. His wifes with child, did you
know?
He hadnt. Edmure bedded her, after the Red Wedding?
He was bedding her during the Red Wedding. Roslins a pretty little thing, hardly stoatish at
all. And fond of Edmure, queerly. Perwyn tells me shes praying for a girl.
Jaime considered that a moment. Once Edmures son is born, Lord Walder will have no more
need of Edmure.
Thats how I see it too. Our good-uncle Emm... ah, Lord Emmon, that is... he wants Edmure
hanged at once. The presence of a Tully Lord of Riverrun distresses him almost as much as the
prospective birth of yet another. Daily he beseeches me to make Ser Ryman dangle Tully, never
mind how. Meanwhile, I have Lord Gawen Westerling tugging at my other sleeve. The Blackfish
has his lady wife inside the castle, along with three of his snot-nosed whelps. His lordship fears
Tully will kill them if the Freys hang Edmure. One of them is the Young Wolfs little queen.

Jaime had met Jeyne Westerling, he thought, though he could not recall what she looked like.
She must be fair indeed, to have been worth a kingdom. Ser Brynden wont kill children, he
assured his cousin. Hes not as black a fish as that. He was beginning to grasp why Riverrun
had not yet fallen. Tell me of your dispositions, coz.
We have the castle well encircled. Ser Ryman and the Freys are north of the Tumblestone.
South of Red Fork sits Lord Emmon, with Ser Forley Prester and with what remains of your old
host, plus the river lords who came over to us after the Red Wedding. A sullen lot, I dont mind
saying. Good for sulking in their tents, but not much more. Mine own camp is between the
rivers, facing the moat and Riverruns main gates. Weve thrown a boom across the Red Fork,
downstream of the castle. Manfryd Yew and Raynard Ruttiger have charge of its defense, so no
one can escape by boat. I gave them nets as well, to fish. It helps keep us fed.
Can we starve the castle out?
Ser Daven shook his head. The Blackfish expelled all the useless mouths from Riverrun and
picked this country clean. He has enough stores to keep man and horse alive for two full years.
And how well are we provisioned?
So long as there are fish in the rivers, we wont starve, though I dont know how were going
to feed the horses. The Freys are hauling food and fodder down from the Twins, but Ser Ryman
claims he does not have enough to share, so we must forage for ourselves. Half the men I send
off to look for food do not return. Some are deserting. Others we find ripening under trees, with
ropes about their necks.
We came on some, the day before last, said Jaime. Addam Marbrands scouts had found
them, hanging black-faced beneath a crabapple tree. The corpses had been stripped naked, and
each man had a crabapple shoved between his teeth. None bore any wounds; plainly, they had
yielded. Strongboar had grown furious at that, vowing bloody vengeance on the heads of any
men who would truss up warriors to die like suckling pigs.
It might have been outlaws, Ser Daven said, when Jaime told the tale, or not. There are still
bands of northmen about. And these Lords of the Trident may have bent their knees, but
methinks their hearts are still... wolfish.
Jaime glanced at his two younger squires, who were hovering near the braziers pretending not
to listen. Lewys Piper and Garrett Paege were both the sons of river lords. He had grown fond of
both of them and would hate to have to give them to Ser Ilyn. The ropes suggest Dondarrion to
me.
Your lightning lords not the only man who knows how to tie a noose. Dont get me started on
Lord Beric. Hes here, hes there, hes everywhere, but when you send men after him, he melts
away like dew. The river lords are helping him, never doubt it. A bloody marcher lord, if you can
believe it. One day you hear the man is dead, the next theyre saying how he cant be killed. Ser
Daven put his wine cup down. My scouts report fires in the high places at night. Signal fires,
they think... as if there were a ring of watchers all around us. And there are fires in the villages as
well. Some new god...

No, an old one. Thoros is with Dondarrion, the fat Myrish priest who used to drink with
Robert. His golden hand was on the table. Jaime touched it and watched the gold glimmer in the
sullen light of the braziers. Well deal with Dondarrion if we have to, but the Blackfish must
come first. He has to know his cause is hopeless. Have you tried to treat with him?
Ser Ryman did. Rode up to the castle gates half-drunk and blustering, making threats. The
Blackfish appeared on the ramparts long enough to say that he would not waste fair words on
foul men. Then he put an arrow in the rump of Rymans palfrey. The horse reared, Frey fell into
the mud, and I laughed so hard I almost pissed myself. If it had been me inside the castle, I
would have put that arrow through Rymans lying throat.
Ill wear a gorget when I treat with them, said Jaime, with a half smile. I mean to offer him
generous terms. If he could end this siege without bloodshed, then it could not be said that he
had taken up arms against House Tully.
You are welcome to try, my lord, but I doubt that words will win the day. We need to storm
the castle.
There had been a time, not so long ago, when Jaime would doubtless have urged the same
course. He knew he could not sit here for two years to starve the Blackfish out. Whatever we do
needs to be done quickly, he told Ser Daven. My place is back at Kings Landing, with the
king.
Aye, his cousin said. I dont doubt your sister needs you. Why did she send off Kevan? I
thought shed make him Hand.
He would not take it. He was not as blind as I was.
Kevan should be the Warden of the West. Or you. Its not that Im not grateful for the honor,
mind you, but our uncles twice my age and has more experience of command. I hope he knows I
never asked for this.
He knows.
How is Cersei? As beautiful as ever?
Radiant. Fickle. Golden. False as fools gold. Last night he dreamed hed found her fucking
Moon Boy. Hed killed the fool and smashed his sisters teeth to splinters with his golden hand,
just as Gregor Clegane had done to poor Pia. In his dreams Jaime always had two hands; one was
made of gold, but it worked just like the other. The sooner we are done with Riverrun, the
sooner Ill be back at Cerseis side. What Jaime would do then he did not know.
He talked with his cousin for another hour before the Warden of the West finally took his leave.
When he was gone, Jaime donned his gold hand and brown cloak to walk amongst the tents.
If truth be told, he liked this life. He felt more comfortable amongst soldiers in the field than he
ever had at court. And his men seemed comfortable with him as well. At one cookfire three
crossbowmen offered him a share of a hare theyd caught. At another a young knight asked his
counsel on the best way to defend against a warhammer. Down beside the river, he watched two
washerwomen jousting in the shallows, mounted on the shoulders of a pair of men-at-arms. The
girls were half-drunk and half-naked, laughing and snapping rolled-up cloaks at one another as a

dozen other men urged them on. Jaime bet a copper star on the blond girl riding Raff the
Sweetling, and lost it when the two of them went down splashing amongst the reeds.
Across the river wolves were howling, and the wind was gusting through a stand of willows,
making their branches writhe and whisper. Jaime found Ser Ilyn Payne alone outside his tent,
honing his greatsword with a whetstone. Come, he said, and the silent knight rose, smiling
thinly. He enjoys this, he realized. It pleases him to humiliate me nightly. It might please him
even more to kill me. He liked to believe that he was getting better, but the improvement was
slow and not without cost. Underneath his steel and wool and boiled leather Jaime Lannister was
a tapestry of cuts and scabs and bruises.
A sentry challenged them as they led their horses from the camp. Jaime clapped the mans
shoulder with his golden hand. Stay vigilant. There are wolves about. They rode back along
the Red Fork to the ruins of a burned village they had passed that afternoon. It was there they
danced their midnight dance, amongst blackened stones and old cold cinders. For a little while
Jaime had the better of it. Perhaps his old skill was coming back, he allowed himself to think.
Perhaps tonight it would be Payne who went to sleep bruised and bloody.
It was as if Ser Ilyn heard his thoughts. He parried Jaimes last cut lazily and launched a
counterattack that drove Jaime back into the river, where his boot slipped out from under him in
the mud. He ended on his knees, with the silent knights sword at his throat and his own lost in
the reeds. In the moonlight the pockmarks on Paynes face were large as craters. He made that
clacking sound that might have been a laugh and drew his sword up Jaimes throat till the point
came to rest between his lips. Only then did he step back and sheathe his steel.
I would have done better to challenge Raff the Sweetling, with a whore upon my back, Jaime
thought as he shook mud off his gilded hand. Part of him wanted to tear the thing off and fling it
in the river. It was good for nothing, and the left was not much better. Ser Ilyn had gone back to
the horses, leaving him to find his own feet. At least I still have two of those.
The last day of their journey was cold and gusty. The wind rattled amongst the branches in the
bare brown woods and made the river reeds bow low along the Red Fork. Even mantled in the
winter wool of the Kingsguard, Jaime could feel the iron teeth of that wind as he rode beside his
cousin Daven. It was late afternoon when they sighted Riverrun, rising from the narrow point
where the Tumblestone joined the Red Fork. The Tully castle looked like a great stone ship with
its prow pointed downriver. Its sandstone walls were drenched in red-gold light, and seemed
higher and thicker than Jaime had remembered. This nut will not crack easily, he thought
gloomily. If the Blackfish would not listen, he would have no choice but to break the vow hed
made to Catelyn Stark. The vow hed sworn his king came first.
The boom across the river and the three great camps of the besieging army were just as his
cousin had described. Ser Ryman Freys encampment north of the Tumblestone was the largest,
and the most disorderly. A great grey gallows loomed above the tents, as tall as any trebuchet.
On it stood a solitary figure with a rope about his neck. Edmure Tully. Jaime felt a stab of pity.
To keep him standing there day after day, with that noose around his neck... better to have his
head off and be done with it.

Behind the gallows, tents and cookfires spread out in ragged disarray. The Frey lordlings and
their knights had raised their pavilions comfortably upstream of the latrine trenches; downstream
were muddy hovels, wayns, and oxcarts. Ser Ryman dont want his boys getting bored, so he
gives them whores and cockfights and boar baiting, Ser Daven said. Hes even got himself a
bloody singer. Our aunt brought Whitesmile Wat from Lannisport, if you can believe it, so
Ryman had to have a singer too. Couldnt we just dam the river and drown the whole lot of them,
coz?
Jaime could see archers moving behind the merlons on the castle ramparts. Above them
streamed the banners of House Tully, the silver trout defiant on its striped field of red and blue.
But the highest tower flew a different flag; a long white standard emblazoned with the direwolf
of Stark. The first time I saw Riverrun, I was a squire green as summer grass, Jaime told his
cousin. Old Sumner Crakehall sent me to deliver a message, one he swore could not be
entrusted to a raven. Lord Hoster kept me for a fortnight whilst mulling his reply, and sat me
beside his daughter Lysa at every meal.
Small wonder you took the white. Id have done the same.
Oh, Lysa was not so fearsome as all that. She had been a pretty girl, in truth; dimpled and
delicate, with long auburn hair. Timid, though. Prone to tongue-tied silences and fits of giggles,
with none of Cerseis fire. Her older sister had seemed more interesting, though Catelyn was
promised to some northern boy, the heir of Winterfell... but at that age, no girl interested Jaime
half so much as Hosters famous brother, who had won renown fighting the Ninepenny Kings
upon the Stepstones. At table he had ignored poor Lysa, whilst pressing Brynden Tully for tales
of Maelys the Monstrous and the Ebon Prince. Ser Brynden was younger then than I am now,
Jaime reflected, and I was younger than Peck.
The nearest ford across the Red Fork was upstream of the castle. To reach Ser Davens camp
they had to ride through Emmon Freys, past the pavilions of the river lords who had bent their
knees and been accepted back into the kings peace. Jaime noted the banners of Lychester and
Vance, of Roote and Goodbrook, the acorns of House Smallford and Lord Pipers dancing
maiden, but the banners he did not see gave him pause. The silver eagle of Mallister was
nowhere in evidence; nor the red horse of Bracken, the willow of the Rygers, the twining snakes
of Paege. Though all had renewed their fealty to the Iron Throne, none had come to join the
siege. The Brackens were fighting the Blackwoods, Jaime knew, which accounted for their
absence, but as for the rest...
Our new friends are no friends at all. Their loyalty goes no deeper than their skins. Riverrun
had to be taken, and soon. The longer the siege dragged on, the more it would hearten other
recalcitrants, like Tytos Blackwood.
At the ford, Ser Kennos of Kayce blew the Horn of Herrock. That should bring the Blackfish to
the battlements. Ser Hugo and Ser Dermot led Jaimes way across the river, splashing through
the muddy red-brown waters with the white standard of the Kingsguard and Tommens stag and
lion streaming in the wind. The rest of the column followed hard behind them.

The Lannister camp rang to the sound of wooden hammers where a new siege tower was rising.
Two other towers stood completed, half-covered with raw horsehide. Between them sat a rolling
ram; a tree trunk with a fire-hardened point suspended on chains beneath a wooden roof. My coz
has not been idle, it would seem.
My lord, Peck asked, where do you want your tent?
There, upon that rise. He pointed with his golden hand, though it was not well suited to that
task. Baggage there, horse lines there. Well use the latrines my cousin has so kindly dug for us.
Ser Addam, inspect our perimeter with an eye for any weaknesses. Jaime did not anticipate an
attack, but he had not anticipated the Whispering Wood either.
Shall I summon the stoats for a war council? Daven asked.
Not until Ive spoken to the Blackfish. Jaime beckoned to Beardless Jon Bettley. Shake out a
peace banner and bear a message to the castle. Inform Ser Brynden Tully that I would have
words with him, at first light on the morrow. I will come to the edge of the moat and meet him
on his drawbridge.
Peck looked alarmed. My lord, the bowmen could...
They wont. Jaime dismounted. Raise my tent and plant my standards. And well see who
comes running, and how quickly.
It did not require long. Pia was fussing at a brazier, trying to light the coals. Peck went to help
her. Of late, Jaime oft went to sleep to the sound of them fucking in a corner of the tent. As
Garrett was undoing the clasps on Jaimes greaves, the tent flapped open. Here at last, are you?
boomed his aunt. She filled the door, with her Frey husband peering out from behind her. Past
time. Have you no hug for your old fat aunt? She held out her arms and left him no choice but
to embrace her.
Genna Lannister had been a shapely woman in her youth, always threatening to overflow her
bodice. Now the only shape she had was square. Her face was broad and smooth, her neck a
thick pink pillar, her bosom enormous. She carried enough flesh to make two of her husband.
Jaime hugged her dutifully and waited for her to pinch his ear. She had been pinching his ear for
as long as he could remember, but today she forbore. Instead, she planted soft and sloppy kisses
on his cheeks. I am sorry for your loss.
I had a new hand made, of gold. He showed her.
Very nice. Will they make you a gold father too? Lady Gennas voice was sharp. Tywin was
the loss I meant.
A man such as Tywin Lannister comes but once in a thousand years, declared her husband.
Emmon Frey was a fretful man with nervous hands. He might have weighed ten stone... but only
wet, and clad in mail. He was a weed in wool, with no chin to speak of, a flaw that the
prominence of the apple in his throat made even more absurd. Half his hair had been gone before
he turned thirty. Now he was sixty and only a few white wisps remained.
Some queer tales have been reaching us of late, Lady Genna said, after Jaime dismissed Pia
and his squires. A woman hardly knows what to believe. Can it be true that Tyrion slew Tywin?
Or is that some calumny your sister put about?

Its true enough. The weight of his golden hand had grown irksome. He fumbled at the straps
that secured it to his wrist.
For a son to raise his hand against a father, Ser Emmon said. Monstrous. These are dark
days in Westeros. I fear for us all with Lord Tywin gone.
You feared for us all when he was here. Genna settled her ample rump upon a camp stool,
which creaked alarmingly beneath her weight. Nephew, speak to us of our son Cleos and the
manner of his death.
Jaime undid the last fastening and set his hand aside. We were set upon by outlaws. Ser Cleos
scattered them, but it cost his life. The lie came easy; he could see that it pleased them.
The boy had courage, I always said so. It was in his blood. A pinkish froth glistened on Ser
Emmons lips when he spoke, courtesy of the sourleaf he liked to chew.
His bones should be interred beneath the Rock, in the Hall of Heroes, Lady Genna declared.
Where was he laid to rest?
Nowhere. The Bloody Mummers stripped his corpse and left his flesh to feast the carrion
crows. Beside a stream, he lied. When this war is done, I will find the place and send him
home. Bones were bones; these days, nothing was easier to come by.
This war... Lord Emmon cleared his throat, the apple in his throat moving up and down. You
will have seen the siege machines. Rams, trebuchets, towers. It will not serve, Jaime. Daven
means to break my walls, smash in my gates. He talks of burning pitch, of setting the castle afire.
My castle. He reached up one sleeve, brought out a parchment, and thrust it at Jaimes face. I
have the decree. Signed by the king, by Tommen, see, the royal seal, the stag and lion. I am the
lawful lord of Riverrun, and I will not have it reduced to a smoking ruin.
Oh, put that fool thing away, his wife snapped. So long as the Blackfish sits inside Riverrun
you can wipe your arse with that paper for all the good it does us. Though she had been a Frey
for fifty years, Lady Genna remained very much a Lannister. Quite a lot of Lannister. Jaime
will deliver you the castle.
To be sure, Lord Emmon said. Ser Jaime, your lord fathers faith in me was well placed, you
shall see. I mean to be firm but fair with my new vassals. Blackwood and Bracken, Jason
Mallister, Vance and Piper, they shall learn that they have a just overlord in Emmon Frey. My
father as well, yes. He is the Lord of the Crossing, but I am the Lord of Riverrun. A son has a
duty to obey his father, true, but a bannerman must obey his overlord.
Oh, gods be good. You are not his overlord, ser. Read your parchment. You were granted
Riverrun with its lands and incomes, no more. Petyr Baelish is the Lord Paramount of the
Trident. Riverrun will be subject to the rule of Harrenhal.
That did not please Lord Emmon. Harrenhal is a ruin, haunted and accursed, he objected,
and Baelish... the man is a coin counter, no proper lord, his birth...
If you are unhappy with the arrangements, go to Kings Landing and take it up with my sweet
sister. Cersei would devour Emmon Frey and pick her teeth with his bones, he did not doubt.
That is, if shes not too busy fucking Osmund Kettleblack.

Lady Genna gave a snort. There is no need to trouble Her Grace with such nonsense. Emm,
why dont you step outside and have a breath of air?
A breath of air?
Or a good long piss, if you prefer. My nephew and I have family matters to discuss.
Lord Emmon flushed. Yes, it is warm in here. I will wait outside, my lady. Ser. His lordship
rolled up his parchment, sketched a bow toward Jaime, and tottered from the tent.
It was hard not to feel contemptuous of Emmon Frey. He had arrived at Casterly Rock in his
fourteenth year to wed a lioness half his age. Tyrion used to say that Lord Tywin had given him a
nervous belly for a wedding gift. Genna has played her part as well. Jaime remembered many a
feast where Emmon sat poking at his food sullenly whilst his wife made ribald jests with
whatever household knight had been seated to her left, their conversations punctuated by loud
bursts of laughter. She gave Frey four sons, to be sure. At least she says they are his. No one in
Casterly Rock had the courage to suggest otherwise, least of all Ser Emmon.
No sooner was he gone than his lady wife rolled her eyes. My lord and master. What was your
father thinking, to name him Lord of Riverrun?
I imagine he was thinking of your sons.
I think of them as well. Emm will make a wretched lord. Ty may do better, if he has the sense
to learn from me and not his father. She looked about the tent. Do you have wine?
Jaime found a flagon and poured for her, one-handed. Why are you here, my lady? You should
have remained at Casterly Rock until the fightings done.
Once Emm heard he was a lord, he had to come at once to claim his seat. Lady Genna took a
drink and wiped her mouth on her sleeve. Your father should have granted us Darry. Cleos
married one of the plowmans daughters, you will recall. His grieving widow is furious that her
sons were not granted her lord fathers lands. Gatehouse Ami is Darry only on her mothers side.
My good-daughter Jeyne is her aunt, a full sister to Lady Mariya.
A younger sister, Jaime reminded her, and Ty will have Riverrun, a greater prize than
Darry.
A poisoned prize. House Darry is extinguished in the male line, House Tully is not. That
muttonhead Ser Ryman puts a noose round Edmures neck, but will not hang him. And Roslin
Frey has a trout growing in her belly. My grandsons will never be secure in Riverrun so long as
any Tully heir remains alive.
She was not wrong, Jaime knew. If Roslin has a girl
she can wed Ty, provided old Lord Walder will consent. Yes, Ive thought of that. A boy is
just as likely, though, and his little cock would cloud the issue. And if Ser Brynden should
survive this siege, he might be inclined to claim Riverrun in his own name... or in the name of
young Robert Arryn.
Jaime remembered little Robert from Kings Landing, still sucking on his mothers teats at four.
Arryn wont live long enough to breed. And why should the Lord of the Eyrie need Riverrun?
Why does a man with one pot of gold need another? Men are greedy. Tywin should have
granted Riverrun to Kevan and Darry to Emm. I would have told him so if he had troubled to ask

me, but when did your father ever consult with anyone but Kevan? She sighed deeply. I do not
blame Kevan for wanting the safer seat for his own boy, mind you. I know him too well.
What Kevan wants and what Lancel wants appear to be two different things. He told her of
Lancels decision to renounce wife and lands and lordship to fight for the Holy Faith. If you still
want Darry, write to Cersei and make your case.
Lady Genna waved her cup in dismissal. No, that horse has left the yard. Emm has it in his
pointed head that he will rule the riverlands. And Lancel... I suppose we should have seen this
coming from afar. A life protecting the High Septon is not so different from a life protecting the
king, after all. Kevan will be wroth, I fear. As wroth as Tywin was when you got it in your head
to take the white. At least Kevan still has Martyn for an heir. He can marry him to Gatehouse
Ami in Lancels place. Seven save us all. His aunt gave a sigh. And speaking of the Seven,
why would Cersei permit the Faith to arm again?
Jaime shrugged. I am certain she had reasons.
Reasons? Lady Genna made a rude noise. They had best be good reasons. The Swords and
Stars troubled even the Targaryens. The Conqueror himself tread carefully with the Faith, so they
would not oppose him. And when Aegon died and the lords rose up against his sons, both orders
were in the thick of that rebellion. The more pious lords supported them, and many of the
smallfolk. King Maegor finally had to put a bounty on them. He paid a dragon for the head of
any unrepentant Warriors Son, and a silver stag for the scalp of a Poor Fellow, if I recall my
history. Thousands were slain, but nigh as many still roamed the realm, defiant, until the Iron
Throne slew Maegor and King Jaehaerys agreed to pardon all those who would set aside their
swords.
Id forgotten most of that, Jaime confessed.
You and your sister both. She took another swallow of her wine. Is it true that Tywin was
smiling on his bier?
He was rotting on his bier. It made his mouth twist.
Was that all it was? That seemed to sadden her. Men say that Tywin never smiled, but he
smiled when he wed your mother, and when Aerys made him Hand. When Tarbeck Hall came
crashing down on Lady Ellyn, that scheming bitch, Tyg claimed he smiled then. And he smiled
at your birth, Jaime, I saw that with mine own eyes. You and Cersei, pink and perfect, as alike as
two peas in a pod... well, except between the legs. What lungs you had!
Hear us roar. Jaime grinned. Next youll be telling me how much he liked to laugh.
No. Tywin mistrusted laughter. He heard too many people laughing at your grandsire. She
frowned. I promise you, this mummers farce of a siege would not have amused him. How do
you mean to end it, now that youre here?
Treat with the Blackfish.
That wont work.
I mean to offer him good terms.
Terms require trust. The Freys murdered guests beneath their roof, and you, well... I mean no
offense, my love, but you did kill a certain king you had sworn to protect.

And Ill kill the Blackfish if he does not yield. His tone was harsher than hed intended, but
he was in no mood for having Aerys Targaryen thrown in his face.
How, with your tongue? Her voice was scornful. I may be an old fat woman, but I do not
have cheese between my ears, Jaime. Neither does the Blackfish. Empty threats wont daunt
him.
What would you counsel?
She gave a ponderous shrug. Emm wants Edmures head off. For once, he may be right. Ser
Ryman has made us a laughingstock with that gibbet of his. You need to show Ser Brynden that
your threats have teeth.
Killing Edmure might harden Ser Bryndens resolve.
Resolve is one thing Brynden Blackfish never lacked for. Hoster Tully could have told you
that. Lady Genna finished her wine. Well, I would never presume to tell you how to fight a
war. I know my place... unlike your sister. Is it true that Cersei burned the Red Keep?
Only the Tower of the Hand.
His aunt rolled her eyes. She would have done better to leave the tower and burn her Hand.
Harys Swyft? If ever a man deserved his arms, it is Ser Harys. And Gyles Rosby, Seven save us,
I thought he died years ago. Merryweather... your father used to call his grandsire the Chuckler,
Ill have you know. Tywin claimed the only thing Merryweather was good for was chuckling at
the kings witticisms. His lordship chuckled himself right into exile, as I recall. Cersei has put
some bastard on the council too, and a kettle in the Kingsguard. She has the Faith arming and the
Braavosi calling in loans all over Westeros. None of which would be happening if shed had the
simple sense to make your uncle the Kings Hand.
Ser Kevan refused the office.
So he said. He did not say why. There was much he did not say. Would not say. Lady Genna
made a face. Kevan always did what was asked of him. It is not like him to turn away from any
duty. Something is awry here, I can smell it.
He said that he was tired. He knows, Cersei had said, as they stood above their fathers
corpse. He knows about us.
Tired? His aunt pursed her lips. I suppose he has a right to be. It has been hard for Kevan,
living all his life in Tywins shadow. It was hard for all my brothers. That shadow Tywin cast
was long and black, and each of them had to struggle to find a little sun. Tygett tried to be his
own man, but he could never match your father, and that just made him angrier as the years went
by. Gerion made japes. Better to mock the game than to play and lose. But Kevan saw how
things stood early on, so he made himself a place by your fathers side.
And you? Jaime asked her.
It was not a game for girls. I was my fathers precious princess... and Tywins too, until I
disappointed him. My brother never learned to like the taste of disappointment. She pushed
herself to her feet. Ive said what I came to say, I shant take any more of your time. Do what
Tywin would have done.
Did you love him? Jaime heard himself ask.

His aunt looked at him strangely. I was seven when Walder Frey persuaded my lord father to
give my hand to Emm. His second son, not even his heir. Father was himself a thirdborn son, and
younger children crave the approval of their elders. Frey sensed that weakness in him, and Father
agreed for no better reason than to please him. My betrothal was announced at a feast with half
the west in attendance. Ellyn Tarbeck laughed and the Red Lion went angry from the hall. The
rest sat on their tongues. Only Tywin dared speak against the match. A boy of ten. Father turned
as white as mares milk, and Walder Frey was quivering. She smiled. How could I not love
him, after that? That is not to say that I approved of all he did, or much enjoyed the company of
the man that he became... but every little girl needs a big brother to protect her. Tywin was big
even when he was little. She gave a sigh. Who will protect us now?
Jaime kissed her cheek. He left a son.
Aye, he did. That is what I fear the most, in truth.
That was a queer remark. Why should you fear?
Jaime, she said, tugging on his ear, sweetling, I have known you since you were a babe at
Joannas breast. You smile like Gerion and fight like Tyg, and theres some of Kevan in you,
else you would not wear that cloak... but Tyrion is Tywins son, not you. I said so once to your
fathers face, and he would not speak to me for half a year. Men are such thundering great fools.
Even the sort who come along once in a thousand years.

CAT OF THE CANALS
She woke before the sun came up, in the little room beneath the eaves that she shared
with Bruscos daughters.
Cat was always the first to awaken. It was warm and snug under the blankets with Talea and
Brea. She could hear the soft sounds of their breath. When she stirred, sitting up and fumbling
for her slippers, Brea muttered a sleepy complaint and rolled over. The chill off the grey stone
walls gave Cat gooseprickles. She dressed quickly in the darkness. As she was slipping her tunic
over her head, Talea opened her eyes and called out, Cat, be a sweet and bring my clothes for
me. She was a gawky girl, all skin and bones and elbows, always complaining she was cold.
Cat fetched her clothes for her, and Talea squirmed into them underneath the blankets. Together
they pulled her big sister from the bed, as Brea muttered sleepy threats.
By the time the three of them climbed down the ladder from the room beneath the eaves,
Brusco and his sons were out in the boat on the little canal behind the house. Brusco barked at
the girls to hurry, as he did every morning. His sons helped Talea and Brea onto the boat. It was
Cats task to untie them from the piling, toss the rope to Brea, and shove the boat away from the
dock with a booted foot. Bruscos sons leaned into their poles. Cat ran and leapt across the
widening gap between dock and deck.
After that, she had nothing to do but sit and yawn for a long while as Brusco and his sons
pushed them through the predawn gloom, wending down a confusion of small canals. The day
looked to be a rare one, crisp and clear and bright. Braavos only had three kinds of weather; fog
was bad, rain was worse, and freezing rain was worst. But every so often would come a morning
when the dawn broke pink and blue and the air was sharp and salty. Those were the days that Cat
loved best.
When they reached the broad straight waterway that was the Long Canal, they turned south for
the fishmarket. Cat sat with her legs crossed, fighting a yawn and trying to recall the details of
her dream. I dreamed I was a wolf again. She could remember the smells best of all: trees and
earth, her pack brothers, the scents of horse and deer and man, each different from the others,
and the sharp acrid tang of fear, always the same. Some nights the wolf dreams were so vivid
that she could hear her brothers howling even as she woke, and once Brea had claimed that she
was growling in her sleep as she thrashed beneath the covers. She thought that was some stupid
lie till Talea said it too.
I should not be dreaming wolf dreams, the girl told herself. I am a cat now, not a wolf. I am Cat
of the Canals. The wolf dreams belonged to Arya of House Stark. Try as she might, though, she
could not rid herself of Arya. It made no difference whether she slept beneath the temple or in
the little room beneath the eaves with Bruscos daughters, the wolf dreams still haunted her by
night... and sometimes other dreams as well.
The wolf dreams were the good ones. In the wolf dreams she was swift and strong, running
down her prey with her pack at her heels. It was the other dream she hated, the one where she
had two feet instead of four. In that one she was always looking for her mother, stumbling

through a wasted land of mud and blood and fire. It was always raining in that dream, and she
could hear her mother screaming, but a monster with a dogs head would not let her go save her.
In that dream she was always weeping, like a frightened little girl. Cats never weep, she told
herself, no more than wolves do. Its just a stupid dream.
The Long Canal took Bruscos boat beneath the green copper domes of the Palace of Truth and
the tall square towers of the Prestayns and Antaryons before passing under the immense grey
arches of the sweetwater river to the district known as Silty Town, where the buildings were
smaller and less grand. Later in the day the canal would be choked with serpent boats and barges,
but in the predawn darkness they had the waterway almost to themselves. Brusco liked to reach
the fishmarket just as the Titan roared to herald the coming of the sun. The sound would boom
across the lagoon, faint with distance but still loud enough to wake the sleeping city.
By the time Brusco and his sons tied up by the fishmarket, it was swarming with herring sellers
and cod wives, oystermen, clam diggers, stewards, cooks, smallwives, and sailors off the galleys,
all haggling loudly with one another as they inspected the morning catch. Brusco would walk
from boat to boat, having a look at all the shellfish, and from time to time tapping a cask or crate
with his cane. This one, he would say. Yes. Tap tap. This one. Tap tap. No, not that.
Here. Tap. He was not much one for talking. Talea said her father was as grudging with his
words as with his coins. Oysters, clams, crabs, mussels, cockles, sometimes prawns... Brusco
bought it all, depending on what looked best each day. It was for them to carry the crates and
casks that he tapped back to the boat. Brusco had a bad back, and could not lift anything heavier
than a tankard of brown ale.
Cat always stank of brine and fish by the time they pushed off for home again. She had grown
so used to it that she hardly even smelled it anymore. She did not mind the work. When her
muscles ached from lifting, or her back got sore from the weight of a cask, she told herself that
she was getting stronger.
Once all the casks were loaded, Brusco shoved them off again, and his sons poled them back up
the Long Canal. Brea and Talea sat at the front of the boat whispering to one another. Cat knew
that they were talking about Breas boy, the one she climbed up on the roof to meet, after her
father was asleep.
Learn three new things before you come back to us, the kindly man had commanded Cat,
when he sent her forth into the city. She always did. Sometimes it was no more than three new
words of the Braavosi tongue. Sometimes she brought back sailors tales, of strange and
wondrous happenings from the wide wet world beyond the isles of Braavos, wars and rains of
toads and dragons hatching. Sometimes she learned three new japes or three new riddles, or
tricks of this trade or the other. And every so often, she would learn some secret.
Braavos was a city made for secrets, a city of fogs and masks and whispers. Its very existence
had been a secret for a century, the girl had learned; its location had been hidden thrice that long.
The Nine Free Cities are the daughters of Valyria that was, the kindly man taught her, but
Braavos is the bastard child who ran away from home. We are a mongrel folk, the sons of slaves
and whores and thieves. Our forebears came from half a hundred lands to this place of refuge, to

escape the dragonlords who had enslaved them. Half a hundred gods came with them, but there
is one god all of them shared in common.
Him of Many Faces.
And many names, the kindly man had said. In Qohor he is the Black Goat, in Yi Ti the Lion
of Night, in Westeros the Stranger. All men must bow to him in the end, no matter if they
worship the Seven or the Lord of Light, the Moon Mother or the Drowned God or the Great
Shepherd. All mankind belongs to him... else somewhere in the world would be a folk who lived
forever. Do you know of any folk who live forever?
No, she would answer. All men must die.
Cat would always find the kindly man waiting for her when she went creeping back to the
temple on the knoll on the night the moon went black. What do you know that you did not know
when you left us? he would always ask her.
I know what Blind Beqqo puts in the hot sauce he uses on his oysters, she would say. I know
the mummers at the Blue Lantern are going to do The Lord of the Woeful Countenance and the
mummers at the Ship mean to answer with Seven Drunken Oarsmen. I know the bookseller
Lotho Lornel sleeps in the house of Tradesman-Captain Moredo Prestayn whenever the
honorable tradesman-captain is away on a voyage, and moves out whenever the Vixen comes
home.
It is good to know these things. And who are you?
No one.
You lie. You are Cat of the canals, I know you well. Go and sleep, child. On the morrow you
must serve.
All men must serve. And so she did, three days of every thirty. When the moon was black she
was no one, a servant of the Many-Faced God in a robe of black and white. She walked beside
the kindly man through the fragrant darkness, carrying her iron lantern. She washed the dead,
went through their clothes, and counted out their coins. Some days she still helped Umma cook,
chopping big white mushrooms and boning fish. But only when the moon was black. The rest of
the time she was an orphan girl in a pair of battered boots too big for her feet and a brown cloak
with a ragged hem, crying Mussels and cockles and clams as she wheeled her barrow through
the Ragmans Harbor.
The moon would be black tonight, she knew; last night it had been no more than a sliver. What
do you know that you did not know when you left us? the kindly man would ask as soon as he
saw her. I know that Bruscos daughter Brea meets a boy on the roof when her father is asleep,
she thought. Brea lets him touch her, Talea says, even though hes just a roof rat and all the roof
rats are supposed to be thieves. That was only one thing, though. Cat would need two more. She
was not concerned. There were always new things to learn, down by the ships.
When they returned to the house Cat helped Bruscos sons unload the boat. Brusco and his
daughters divided the shellfish amongst three barrows, arranging them on layered beds of
seaweed. Come back when all is sold, Brusco told the girls, just as he did every morning, and
they set forth to cry the catch. Brea would wheel her barrow to the Purple Harbor, to sell to the

Braavosi sailors whose ships were anchored there. Talea would try the alleys round the Moon
Pool, or sell amongst the temples on the Isle of the Gods. Cat headed for the Ragmans Harbor,
as she did nine days of every ten.
Only Braavosi were permitted use of the Purple Harbor, from the Drowned Town and the
Sealords Palace; ships from her sister cities and the rest of the wide world had to use the
Ragmans Harbor, a poorer, rougher, dirtier port than the Purple. It was noisier as well, as sailors
and traders from half a hundred lands crowded its wharves and alleys, mingling with those who
served and preyed on them. Cat liked it best of any place in Braavos. She liked the noise and the
strange smells, and seeing what ships had come in on the evening tide and what ships had
departed. She liked the sailors too; the boisterous Tyroshi with their booming voices and dyed
whiskers; the fair-haired Lyseni, always trying to niggle down her prices; the squat, hairy sailors
from the Port of Ibben, growling curses in low, raspy voices. Her favorites were the Summer
Islanders, with their skins as smooth and dark as teak. They wore feathered cloaks of red and
green and yellow, and the tall masts and white sails of their swan ships were magnificent.
And sometimes there were Westerosi too, oarsmen and sailors off carracks out of Oldtown,
trading galleys out of Duskendale, Kings Landing, and Gulltown, big-bellied wine cogs from
the Arbor. Cat knew the Braavosi words for mussels and cockles and clams, but along the
Ragmans Harbor she cried her wares in the trade tongue, the language of the wharves and docks
and sailors taverns, a coarse jumble of words and phrases from a dozen languages, accompanied
by hand signs and gestures, most of them insulting. Those were the ones that Cat liked best. Any
man who bothered her was apt to see the fig, or hear himself described as an asss pizzle or a
camels cunt. Maybe I never saw a camel, she would tell them, but I know a camels cunt
when I smell one.
Once in a great while that would make somebody angry, but when it did she had her finger
knife. She kept it very sharp, and knew how to use it too. Red Roggo showed her one afternoon
at the Happy Port, while he was waiting for Lanna to come free. He taught her how to hide it up
her sleeve and slip it out when she had need of it, and how to slice a purse so smooth and quick
the coins would all be spent before their owner ever missed them. That was good to know, even
the kindly man agreed; especially at night, when the bravos and roof rats were abroad.
Cat had made friends along the wharves; porters and mummers, ropemakers and sailmenders,
taverners, brewers and bakers and beggars and whores. They bought clams and cockles from her,
told her true tales of Braavos and lies about their lives, and laughed at the way she talked when
she tried to speak Braavosi. She never let that trouble her. Instead, she showed them all the fig,
and told them they were camel cunts, which made them roar with laughter. Gyloro Dothare
taught her filthy songs, and his brother Gyleno told her the best places to catch eels. The
mummers off the Ship showed her how a hero stands, and taught her speeches from The Song of
the Rhoyne, The Conquerors Two Wives, and The Merchants Lusty Lady. Quill, the sad-eyed
little man who made up all the bawdy farces for the Ship, offered to teach her how a woman
kisses, but Tagganaro smacked him with a codfish and put an end to that. Cossomo the Conjurer
instructed her in sleight of hand. He could swallow mice and pull them from her ears. Its

magic, hed say. Its not, Cat said. The mouse was up your sleeve the whole time. I could
see it moving.
Oysters, clams, and cockles were Cats magic words, and like all good magic words they
could take her almost anywhere. She had boarded ships from Lys and Oldtown and the Port of
Ibben and sold her oysters right on deck. Some days she rolled her barrow past the towers of the
mighty to offer baked clams to the guardsmen at their gates. Once she cried her catch on the
steps of the Palace of Truth, and when another peddler tried to run her off she turned his cart
over and sent his oysters skittering across the cobbles. Customs officers from the Chequy Port
would buy from her, and paddlers from the Drowned Town, whose sunken domes and towers
poked up from the green waters of the lagoon. One time, when Brea took to her bed with her
moon blood, Cat had pushed her barrow to the Purple Harbor to sell crabs and prawns to
oarsmen off the Sealords pleasure barge, covered stem to stern with laughing faces. Other days
she followed the sweetwater river to the Moon Pool. She sold to swaggering bravos in striped
satin, and to keyholders and justiciars in drab coats of brown and grey. But she always returned
to the Ragmans Harbor.
Oysters, clams, and cockles, the girl shouted as she pushed her barrow along the wharves.
Mussels, prawns, and cockles. A dirty orange cat came padding after her, drawn by the sound
of her call. Farther on, a second cat appeared, a sad, bedraggled grey thing with a stub tail. Cats
liked the smell of Cat. Some days she would have a dozen trailing after her before the sun went
down. From time to time the girl would throw an oyster at them and watch to see who came
away with it. The biggest toms would seldom win, she noticed; oft as not, the prize went to some
smaller, quicker animal, thin and mean and hungry. Like me, she told herself. Her favorite was a
scrawny old tom with a chewed ear who reminded her of a cat that shed once chased all around
the Red Keep. No, that was some other girl, not me.
Two of the ships that had been here yesterday were gone, Cat saw, but five new ones had
docked; a small carrack called the Brazen Monkey, a huge Ibbenese whaler that reeked of tar and
blood and whale oil, two battered cogs from Pentos, and a lean green galley up from Old
Volantis. Cat stopped at the foot of every gangplank to cry her clams and oysters, once in the
trade talk and again in the Common Tongue of Westeros. A crewman on the whaler cursed at her
so loudly that he scared away her cats and one of the Pentoshi oarsman asked how much she
wanted for the clam between her legs, but she fared better at the other ships. A mate on the green
galley wolfed half a dozen oysters and told her how his captain had been killed by the Lysene
pirates who had tried to board them near the Stepstones. That bastard Saan it was, with Old
Mothers Son and his big Valyrian. We got away, but just.
The little Brazen Monkey proved to be from Gulltown, with a Westerosi crew who were glad to
talk to someone in the Common Tongue. One asked how a girl from Kings Landing came to be
selling mussels on the docks of Braavos, so she had to tell her tale. Were here four days, and
four long nights, another told her. Wheres a man to go to find a bit of sport?

The mummers at the Ship are doing Seven Drunken Oarsmen, Cat told them, and theres eel
fights in the Spotted Cellar, down by the gates of Drowned Town. Or if you want you can go by
the Moon Pool, where the bravos duel at night.
Aye, thats good, another sailor said, but what Wat was really wanting was a woman.
The best whores are at the Happy Port, down by where the mummers Ship is moored. She
pointed. Some of the dockside whores were vicious, and sailors fresh from the sea never knew
which ones. Svrone was the worst. Everyone said she had robbed and killed a dozen men,
rolling the bodies into the canals to feed the eels. The Drunken Daughter could be sweet when
sober, but not with wine in her. And Canker Jeyne was really a man. Ask for Merry. Meralyn is
her true name, but everyone calls her Merry, and she is. Merry bought a dozen oysters every
time Cat came by the brothel and shared them with her girls. She had a good heart, everyone
agreed. That, and the biggest pair of teats in all of Braavos, Merry herself was fond of
boasting.
Her girls were nice as well; Blushing Bethany and the Sailors Wife, one-eyed Yna who could
tell your fortune from a drop of blood, pretty little Lanna, even Assadora, the Ibbenese woman
with the mustache. They might not be beautiful, but they were kind to her. The Happy Port is
where all the porters go, Cat assured the men of the Brazen Monkey. The boys unload the
ships, Merry says, and my girls unload the lads who sail them.
What about them fancy whores the singers sing about? asked the youngest monkey, a red-
haired boy with freckles who could not have been much more than six-and-ten. Are they as
pretty as they say? Where would I get one o them?
His shipmates looked at him and laughed. Seven hells, boy, said one of them. Might be the
captain could get hisself a courty-san, but only if he sold the bloody ship. That sort o cunts for
lords and such, not for the likes o us.
The courtesans of Braavos were famed across the world. Singers sang of them, goldsmiths and
jewelers showered them with gifts, craftsmen begged for the honor of their custom, merchant
princes paid royal ransoms to have them on their arms at balls and feasts and mummer shows,
and bravos slew each other in their names. As she pushed her barrow along the canals, Cat would
sometimes glimpse one of them floating by, on her way to an evening with some lover. Every
courtesan had her own barge, and servants to pole her to her trysts. The Poetess always had a
book to hand, the Moonshadow wore only white and silver, and the Merling Queen was never
seen without her Mermaids, four young maidens in the blush of their first flowering who held her
train and did her hair. Each courtesan was more beautiful than the last. Even the Veiled Lady
was beautiful, though only those she took as lovers ever saw her face.
I sold three cockles to a courtesan, Cat told the sailors. She called to me as she was stepping
off her barge. Brusco had made it plain to her that she was never to speak to a courtesan unless
she was spoken to first, but the woman had smiled at her and paid her in silver, ten times what
the cockles had been worth.
Which one was this, now? The Queen o Cockles, was it?

The Black Pearl, she told them. Merry claimed the Black Pearl was the most famous
courtesan of all. Shes descended from the dragons, that one, the woman had told Cat. The
first Black Pearl was a pirate queen. A Westerosi prince took her for a lover and got a daughter
on her, who grew up to be a courtesan. Her own daughter followed her, and her daughter after
her, until you get to this one. What did she say to you, Cat?
She said Ill take three cockles, and Do you have some hot sauce, little one? the girl had
answered.
And what did you say?
I said, No, my lady, and, Dont call me little one. My name is Cat. I should have hot sauce.
Beqqo does, and he sells three times as many oysters as Brusco.
Cat told the kindly man about the Black Pearl too. Her true name is Bellegere Otherys, she
informed him. It was one of the three things that she had learned.
It is, the priest said softly. Her mother was Bellonara, but the first Black Pearl was a
Bellegere as well.
Cat knew that the men off the Brazen Monkey would not care about the name of a courtesans
mother, though. Instead, she asked them for tidings of the Seven Kingdoms, and the war.
War? laughed one of them. What war? There is no war.
Not in Gulltown, said another. Not in the Vale. The little lords kept us out of it, same as his
mother did.
Same as his mother did. The lady of the Vale was her own mothers sister. Lady Lysa, she
said, is she... ?
... dead? finished the freckled boy whose head was full of courtesans. Aye. Murdered by her
own singer.
Oh. Its nought to me. Cat of the Canals never had an aunt. She never did. Cat lifted her
barrow and wheeled away from the Brazen Monkey, bumping over cobblestones. Oysters,
clams, and cockles, she called. Oysters, clams, and cockles. She sold most of her clams to the
porters off-loading the big wine cog from the Arbor, and the rest to the men repairing a Myrish
trading galley that had been savaged by the storms.
Farther down the docks she came on Tagganaro sitting with his back against a piling, next to
Casso, King of Seals. He bought some mussels from her, and Casso barked and let her shake his
flipper. You come work with me, Cat, urged Tagganaro as he was sucking mussels from their
shells. He had been looking for a new partner ever since the Drunken Daughter put her knife
through Little Narbos hand. I give you more than Brusco, and you would not smell like fish.
Casso likes the way I smell, she said. The King of Seals barked, as if to agree. Is Narbos
hand no better?
Three fingers do not bend, complained Tagganaro, between mussels. What good is a
cutpurse who cannot use his fingers? Narbo was good at picking pockets, not so good at picking
whores.
Merry says the same. Cat was sad. She liked Little Narbo, even if he was a thief. What will
he do?

Pull an oar, he says. Two fingers are enough for that, he thinks, and the Sealords always
looking for more oarsmen. I tell him, Narbo, no. That sea is colder than a maiden and crueler
than a whore. Better you should cut off the hand, and beg. Casso knows I am right. Dont you,
Casso?
The seal barked, and Cat had to smile. She tossed another cockle his way before she went off on
her own.
The day was nearly done by the time Cat reached the Happy Port, across the alley from where
the Ship was anchored. Some of the mummers sat up atop the listing hulk, passing a skin of wine
from hand to hand, but when they saw Cats barrow they came down for some oysters. She asked
them how it went with Seven Drunken Oarsmen. Joss the Gloom shook his head. Quence
finally came on Allaquo abed with Sloey. They went at one another with mummer swords, and
both of them have left us. Well only be five drunken oarsmen tonight, it would seem.
We shall strive to make up in drunkenness what we lack in oarsmen, declared Myrmello. I
for one am equal to the task.
Little Narbo wants to be an oarsman, Cat told them. If you got him, youd have six.
You had best go see Merry, Joss told her. You know how sour she gets without her oysters.
When Cat slipped inside the brothel, though, she found Merry sitting in the common room with
her eyes shut, listening to Dareon play his woodharp. Yna was there too, braiding Lannas fine
long golden hair. Another stupid love song. Lanna was always begging the singer to play her
stupid love songs. She was the youngest of the whores, only ten-and-four. Merry asked three
times as much for her as for any of the other girls, Cat knew.
It made her angry to see Dareon sitting there so brazen, making eyes at Lanna as his fingers
danced across the harp strings. The whores called him the black singer, but there was hardly any
black about him now. With the coin his singing brought him, the crow had transformed himself
into a peacock. Today he wore a plush purple cloak lined with vair, a striped white-and-lilac
tunic, and the parti-colored breeches of a bravo, but he owned a silken cloak as well, and one
made of burgundy velvet that was lined with cloth-of-gold. The only black about him was his
boots. Cat had heard him tell Lanna that hed thrown all the rest in a canal. I am done with
darkness, he had announced.
He is a man of the Nights Watch, she thought, as he sang about some stupid lady throwing
herself off some stupid tower because her stupid prince was dead. The lady should go kill the
ones who killed her prince. And the singer should be on the Wall. When Dareon had first
appeared at the Happy Port, Arya had almost asked if he would take her with him back to
Eastwatch, until she heard him telling Bethany that he was never going back. Hard beds, salt
cod, and endless watches, thats the Wall, hed said. Besides, theres no one half as pretty as
you at Eastwatch. How could I ever leave you? He had said the same thing to Lanna, Cat had
heard, and to one of the whores at the Cattery, and even to the Nightingale the night he played at
the House of Seven Lamps.

I wish I had been here the night the fat one hit him. Merrys whores still laughed about that.
Yna said the fat boy had gone red as a beet every time she touched him, but when he started
trouble Merry had him dragged outside and thrown in the canal.
Cat was thinking about the fat boy, remembering how she had saved him from Terro and
Orbelo, when the Sailors Wife appeared beside her. He sings a pretty song, she murmured
softly, in the Common Tongue of Westeros. The gods must have loved him to give him such a
voice, and that fair face as well.
He is fair of face and foul of heart, thought Arya, but she did not say it. Dareon had once wed
the Sailors Wife, who would only bed with men who married her. The Happy Port sometimes
had three or four weddings a night. Often the cheerful wine-soaked red priest Ezzelyno
performed the rites. Elsewise it was Eustace, who had once been a septon at the Sept-Beyond-
the-Sea. If neither priest nor septon was on hand, one of the whores would run to the Ship and
fetch back a mummer. Merry always claimed the mummers made much better priests than
priests, especially Myrmello.
The weddings were loud and jolly, with a lot of drinking. Whenever Cat happened by with her
barrow, the Sailors Wife would insist that her new husband buy some oysters, to stiffen him for
the consummation. She was good that way, and quick to laugh as well, but Cat thought there was
something sad about her too.
The other whores said that the Sailors Wife visited the Isle of the Gods on the days when her
flower was in bloom, and knew all the gods who lived there, even the ones that Braavos had
forgotten. They said she went to pray for her first husband, her true husband, who had been lost
at sea when she was a girl no older than Lanna. She thinks that if she finds the right god, maybe
he will send the winds and blow her old love back to her, said one-eyed Yna, who had known
her longest, but I pray it never happens. Her love is dead, I could taste that in her blood. If he
ever should come back to her, it will be a corpse.
Dareons song was finally ending. As the last notes faded in the air, Lanna gave a sigh and the
singer put his harp aside and pulled her up into his lap. He had just started to tickle her when Cat
said loudly, Theres oysters, if anyone is wanting some, and Merrys eyes popped open.
Good, the woman said. Bring them in, child. Yna, fetch some bread and vinegar.
The swollen red sun hung in the sky behind the row of masts when Cat took her leave of the
Happy Port, with a plump purse of coins and a barrow empty but for salt and seaweed. Dareon
was leaving too. He had promised to sing at the Inn of the Green Eel this evening, he told her as
they strolled along together. Every time I play the Eel I come away with silver, he boasted,
and some nights there are captains there, and owners. They crossed a little bridge, and made
their way down a crooked back street as the shadows of the day grew longer. Soon I will be
playing in the Purple, and after that the Sealords Palace, Dareon went on. Cats empty barrow
clattered over the cobblestones, making its own sort of rattling music. Yesterday I ate herring
with the whores, but within the year Ill be having emperor crab with courtesans.
What happened to your brother? Cat asked. The fat one. Did he ever find a ship to Oldtown?
He said he was supposed to sail on the Lady Ushanora.

We all were. Lord Snows command. I told Sam, leave the old man, but the fat fool would not
listen. The last light of the setting sun shone in his hair. Well, its too late now.
Just so, said Cat as they stepped into the gloom of a twisty little alley.
By the time Cat returned to Bruscos house, an evening fog was gathering above the small
canal. She put away her barrow, found Brusco in his counting room, and thumped her purse
down on the table in front of him. She thumped the boots down too.
Brusco gave the purse a pat. Good. But whats this?
Boots.
Good boots are hard to find, said Brusco, but these are too small for my feet. He picked one
up to squint at it.
The moon will be black tonight, she reminded him.
Best you pray, then. Brusco shoved the boots aside and poured out the coins to count them.
Valar dohaeris.
Valar morghulis, she thought.
Fog rose all around as she walked through the streets of Braavos. She was shivering a little by
the time she pushed through the weirwood door into the House of Black and White. Only a few
candles burned this evening, flickering like fallen stars. In the darkness all the gods were
strangers.
Down in the vaults, she untied Cats threadbare cloak, pulled Cats fishy brown tunic over her
head, kicked off Cats salt-stained boots, climbed out of Cats smallclothes, and bathed in
lemonwater to wash away the very smell of Cat of the Canals. When she emerged, soaped and
scrubbed pink with her brown hair plastered to her cheeks, Cat was gone. She donned clean
robes and a pair of soft cloth slippers, and padded to the kitchens to beg some food of Umma.
The priests and acolytes had already eaten, but the cook had saved a piece of nice fried cod for
her, and some mashed yellow turnips. She wolfed it down, washed the dish, then went to help the
waif prepare her potions.
Her part was mostly fetching, scrambling up ladders to find the herbs and leaves the waif
required. Sweetsleep is the gentlest of poisons, the waif told her, as she was grinding some
with a mortar and pestle. A few grains will slow a pounding heart and stop a hand from shaking,
and make a man feel calm and strong. A pinch will grant a night of deep and dreamless sleep.
Three pinches will produce that sleep that does not end. The taste is very sweet, so it is best used
in cakes and pies and honeyed wines. Here, you can smell the sweetness. She let her have a
whiff, then sent her up the ladders to find a red glass bottle. This is a crueler poison, but
tasteless and odorless, hence easier to hide. The tears of Lys, men call it. Dissolved in wine or
water, it eats at a mans bowels and belly, and kills as a sickness of those parts. Smell. Arya
sniffed, and smelled nothing. The waif put the tears to one side and opened a fat stone jar. This
paste is spiced with basilisk blood. It will give cooked flesh a savory smell, but if eaten it
produces violent madness, in beasts as well as men. A mouse will attack a lion after a taste of
basilisk blood.
Arya chewed her lip. Would it work on dogs?

On any animal with warm blood. The waif slapped her.
She raised her hand to her cheek, more surprised than hurt. Why did you do that?
It is Arya of House Stark who chews on her lip whenever she is thinking. Are you Arya of
House Stark?
I am no one. She was angry. Who are you?
She did not expect the waif to answer, but she did. I was born the only child of an ancient
House, my noble fathers heir, the waif replied. My mother died when I was little, I have no
memory of her. When I was six my father wed again. His new wife treated me kindly until she
gave birth to a daughter of her own. Then it was her wish that I should die, so her own blood
might inherit my fathers wealth. She should have sought the favor of the Many-Faced God, but
she could not bear the sacrifice he would ask of her. Instead, she thought to poison me herself. It
left me as you see me now, but I did not die. When the healers in the House of the Red Hands
told my father what she had done, he came here and made sacrifice, offering up all his wealth
and me. Him of Many Faces heard his prayer. I was brought to the temple to serve, and my
fathers wife received the gift.
Arya considered her warily. Is that true?
There is truth in it.
And lies as well?
There is an untruth, and an exaggeration.
She had been watching the waifs face the whole time she told her story, but the other girl had
shown her no signs. The Many-Faced God took two-thirds of your fathers wealth, not all.
Just so. That was my exaggeration.
Arya grinned, realized she was grinning, and gave her cheek a pinch. Rule your face, she told
herself. My smile is my servant, he should come at my command. What part was the lie?
No part. I lied about the lie.
Did you? Or are you lying now?
But before the waif could answer, the kindly man stepped into the chamber, smiling. You have
returned to us.
The moon is black.
It is. What three new things do you know, that you did not know when last you left us?
I know thirty new things, she almost said. Three of Little Narbos fingers will not bend. He
means to be an oarsman.
It is good to know this. And what else?
She thought back on her day. Quence and Alaquo had a fight and left the Ship, but I think that
theyll come back.
Do you only think, or do you know?
I only think, she had to confess, even though she was certain of it. Mummers had to eat the
same as other men, and Quence and Alaquo were not good enough for the Blue Lantern.
Just so, said the kindly man. And the third thing?

This time she did not hesitate. Dareon is dead. The black singer who was sleeping at the
Happy Port. He was really a deserter from the Nights Watch. Someone slit his throat and pushed
him into a canal, but they kept his boots.
Good boots are hard to find.
Just so. She tried to keep her face still.
Who could have done this thing, I wonder?
Arya of House Stark. She watched his eyes, his mouth, the muscles of his jaw.
That girl? I thought she had left Braavos. Who are you?
No one.
You lie. He turned to the waif. My throat is dry. Do me a kindness and bring a cup of wine
for me and warm milk for our friend Arya, who has returned to us so unexpectedly.
On her way across the city Arya had wondered what the kindly man would say when she told
him about Dareon. Maybe he would be angry with her, or maybe he would be pleased that she
had given the singer the gift of the Many-Faced God. She had played this talk out in her head
half a hundred times, like a mummer in a show. But she had never thought warm milk.
When the milk came, Arya drank it down. It smelled a little burnt and had a bitter aftertaste.
Go to bed now, child, the kindly man said. On the morrow you must serve.
That night she dreamed she was a wolf again, but it was different from the other dreams. In this
dream she had no pack. She prowled alone, bounding over rooftops and padding silently beside
the banks of a canal, stalking shadows through the fog.
When she woke the next morning, she was blind.

SAMWELL
The Cinnamon Wind was a swan ship out of Tall Trees Town on the Summer Isles,
where men were black, women were wanton, and even the gods were strange. She had no septon
aboard her to lead them in the prayers of passing, so the task fell to Samwell Tarly, somewhere
off the sun-scorched southern coast of Dorne.
Sam donned his blacks to say the words, though the afternoon was warm and muggy, with nary
a breath of wind. He was a good man, he began... but as soon as he had said the words he knew
that they were wrong. No. He was a great man. A maester of the Citadel, chained and sworn,
and Sworn Brother of the Nights Watch, ever faithful. When he was born they named him for a
hero who had died too young, but though he lived a long long time, his own life was no less
heroic. No man was wiser, or gentler, or kinder. At the Wall, a dozen lords commander came and
went during his years of service, but he was always there to counsel them. He counseled kings as
well. He could have been a king himself, but when they offered him the crown he told them they
should give it to his younger brother. How many men would do that? Sam felt the tears welling
in his eyes, and knew he could not go on much longer. He was the blood of the dragon, but now
his fire has gone out. He was Aemon Targaryen. And now his watch is ended.
And now his watch is ended, Gilly murmured after him, rocking the babe in her arms. Kojja
Mo echoed her in the Common Tongue of Westeros, then repeated the words in the Summer
Tongue for Xhondo and her father and the rest of the assembled crew. Sam hung his head and
began to weep, his sobs so loud and wrenching that they made his whole body shake. Gilly came
and stood beside him and let him cry upon her shoulder. There were tears in her eyes as well.
The air was moist and warm and dead calm, and the Cinnamon Wind was adrift upon a deep
blue sea far beyond the sight of land. Black Sam said good words, Xhondo said. Now we
drink his life. He shouted something in the Summer Tongue, and a cask of spiced rum was
rolled up onto the afterdeck and breached, so those on watch might down a cup in the memory of
the old blind dragon. The crew had known him only a short while, but Summer Islanders revered
the elderly and celebrated their dead.
Sam had never drunk rum before. The liquor was strange and heady; sweet at first, but with a
fiery aftertaste that burned his tongue. He was tired, so tired. Every muscle he had was aching,
and there were other aches in places where Sam hadnt known he had muscles. His knees were
stiff, his hands covered with fresh new blisters and raw, sticky patches of skin where the old
blisters had burst. Yet between them, rum and sadness seemed to wash his hurts away. If only
we could have gotten him to Oldtown, the archmaesters might have saved him, he told Gilly, as
they sipped their rum on the Cinnamon Winds high forecastle. The healers of the Citadel are
the best in the Seven Kingdoms. For a while I thought... I hoped...
On Braavos, it had seemed possible that Aemon might recover. Xhondos talk of dragons had
almost seemed to restore the old man to himself. That night he ate every bite Sam put before
him. No one ever looked for a girl, he said. It was a prince that was promised, not a princess.
Rhaegar, I thought... the smoke was from the fire that devoured Summerhall on the day of his

birth, the salt from the tears shed for those who died. He shared my belief when he was young,
but later he became persuaded that it was his own son who fulfilled the prophecy, for a comet
had been seen above Kings Landing on the night Aegon was conceived, and Rhaegar was
certain the bleeding star had to be a comet. What fools we were, who thought ourselves so wise!
The error crept in from the translation. Dragons are neither male nor female, Barth saw the truth
of that, but now one and now the other, as changeable as flame. The language misled us all for a
thousand years. Daenerys is the one, born amidst salt and smoke. The dragons prove it. Just
talking of her seemed to make him stronger. I must go to her. I must. Would that I was even ten
years younger.
The old man had been so determined that he had even walked up the plank onto the Cinnamon
Wind on his own two legs, after Sam made arrangements for their passage. He had already given
his sword and scabbard to Xhondo, to repay the big mate for the feathered cloak hed ruined
saving Sam from drowning. The only things of value that still remained to them were the books
they had brought from the vaults of Castle Black. Sam parted with them glumly. They were
meant for the Citadel, he said, when Xhondo asked him what was wrong. When the mate
translated those words, the captain laughed. Quhuru Mo says the grey men will be having these
books still, Xhondo told him, only they will be buying them from Quhuru Mo. The maesters
give good silver for books they are not having, and sometimes red and yellow gold.
The captain wanted Aemons chain as well, but there Sam had refused. It was a great shame for
any maester to surrender his chain, he had explained. Xhondo had to go over that part three times
before Quhuru Mo accepted it. By the time the dealing was done, Sam was down to his boots and
blacks and smallclothes, and the broken horn Jon Snow had found on the Fist of First Men. I had
no choice, he told himself. We could not stay on Braavos, and short of theft or beggary, there
was no other way to pay for passage. He would have counted it cheap at thrice the price if only
they had gotten Maester Aemon safe to Oldtown.
Their passage south had been a stormy one, however, and every gale took its toll on the old
mans strength and spirits. At Pentos he asked to be brought up onto deck so Sam might paint a
picture of the city for him with words, but that was the last time he left the captains bed. Soon
after that, his wits began to wander once again. By the time the Cinnamon Wind swept past the
Bleeding Tower into Tyrosh harbor, Aemon no longer spoke of trying to find a ship to take him
east. Instead his talk turned back to Oldtown, and the archmaesters of the Citadel.
You must tell them, Sam, he said. The archmaesters. You must make them understand. The
men who were at the Citadel when I was have been dead for fifty years. These others never knew
me. My letters... in Oldtown, they must have read like the ravings of an old man whose wits had
fled. You must convince them, where I could not. Tell them, Sam... tell them how it is upon the
Wall... the wights and the white walkers, the creeping cold...
I will, Sam promised. I will add my voice to yours, maester. We will both tell them, the two
of us together.
No, the old man said. It must be you. Tell them. The prophecy... my brothers dream... Lady
Melisandre has misread the signs. Stannis... Stannis has some of the dragon blood in him, yes.

His brothers did as well. Rhaelle, Eggs little girl, she was how they came by it... their fathers
mother... she used to call me Uncle Maester when she was a little girl. I remembered that, so I
allowed myself to hope... perhaps I wanted to... we all deceive ourselves, when we want to
believe. Melisandre most of all, I think. The sword is wrong, she has to know that... light without
heat... an empty glamor... the sword is wrong, and the false light can only lead us deeper into
darkness, Sam. Daenerys is our hope. Tell them that, at the Citadel. Make them listen. They must
send her a maester. Daenerys must be counseled, taught, protected. For all these years Ive
lingered, waiting, watching, and now that the day has dawned I am too old. I am dying, Sam.
Tears ran from his blind white eyes at that admission. Death should hold no fear for a man as
old as me, but it does. Isnt that silly? It is always dark where I am, so why should I fear the
darkness? Yet I cannot help but wonder what will follow, when the last warmth leaves my body.
Will I feast forever in the Fathers golden hall as the septons say? Will I talk with Egg again, find
Dareon whole and happy, hear my sisters singing to their children? What if the horselords have
the truth of it? Will I ride through the night sky forever on a stallion made of flame? Or must I
return again to this vale of sorrow? Who can say, truly? Who has been beyond the wall of death
to see? Only the wights, and we know what they are like. We know.
There was little and less that Sam could say to that, but he had given the old man what little
comfort he could. And Gilly came in afterward and sang a song for him, a nonsense song thing
that she learned from some of Crasters other wives. It made the old man smile and helped him
go to sleep.
That had been one of his last good days. After that the old man spent more time sleeping than
awake, curled up beneath a pile of furs in the captains cabin. Sometimes he would mutter in his
sleep. When he woke hed call for Sam, insisting that he had to tell him something, but oft as not
he would have forgotten what he meant to say by the time that Sam arrived. Even when he did
recall, his talk was all a jumble. He spoke of dreams and never named the dreamer, of a glass
candle that could not be lit and eggs that would not hatch. He said the sphinx was the riddle, not
the riddler, whatever that meant. He asked Sam to read for him from a book by Septon Barth,
whose writings had been burned during the reign of Baelor the Blessed. Once he woke up
weeping. The dragon must have three heads, he wailed, but I am too old and frail to be one of
them. I should be with her, showing her the way, but my body has betrayed me.
As the Cinnamon Wind made her way through the Stepstones, Maester Aemon forgot Sams
name oft as not. Some days he took him for one of his dead brothers. He was too frail for such a
long voyage, Sam told Gilly on the forecastle, after another sip of the rum. Jon should have
seen that. Aemon was a hundred and two years old, he should never have been sent to sea. If he
had stayed at Castle Black, he might have lived another ten years.
Or else she might have burned him. The red woman. Even here, a thousand leagues from the
Wall, Gilly was reluctant to say Lady Melisandres name aloud. She wanted kings blood for
her fires. Val knew she did. Lord Snow too. That was why they made me take Dallas babe away
and leave my own behind in his place. Maester Aemon went to sleep and didnt wake up, but if
he had stayed, she would have burned him.

He will still burn, Sam thought miserably, only now I have to do it. The Targaryens always
gave their fallen to the flames. Quhuru Mo would not allow a funeral pyre aboard the Cinnamon
Wind, so Aemons corpse had been stuffed inside a cask of blackbelly rum to preserve it until the
ship reached Oldtown.
The night before he died, he asked if he might hold the babe, Gilly went on. I was afraid he
might drop him, but he never did. He rocked him and hummed a song for him, and Dallas boy
reached up and touched his face. The way he pulled his lip I thought he might be hurting him,
but it only made the old man laugh. She stroked Sams hand. We could name the little one
Maester, if you like. When hes old enough, not now. We could.
Maester is not a name. You could call him Aemon, though.
Gilly thought about that. Dalla brought him forth during battle, as the swords sang all around
her. That should be his name. Aemon Battleborn. Aemon Steelsong.
A name even my lord father might like. A warriors name. The boy was Mance Rayders son
and Crasters grandson, after all. He had none of Sams craven blood. Yes. Call him that.
When he is two, she promised, not before.
Where is the boy? Sam thought to ask. Between rum and sorrow, it had taken him that long to
realize that Gilly did not have the babe with her.
Kojja has him. I asked her to take him for a while.
Oh. Kojja Mo was the captains daughter, taller than Sam and slender as a spear, with skin as
black and smooth as polished jet. She captained the ships red archers too, and pulled a double-
curved goldenheart bow that could send a shaft four hundred yards. When the pirates had
attacked them in the Stepstones, Kojjas arrows had slain a dozen of them whilst Sams own
shafts were falling in the water. The only thing Kojja Mo loved better than her bow was
bouncing Dallas boy upon her knee and singing to him in the Summer Tongue. The wildling
prince had become the darling of all the women in the crew, and Gilly seemed to trust them with
him as she had never trusted any man.
That was kind of Kojja, Sam said.
I was afraid of her at first, said Gilly. She was so black, and her teeth were so big and white,
I was afraid she was a beastling or a monster, but shes not. Shes good. I like her.
I know you do. For most of her life the only man Gilly had known had been the terrifying
Craster. The rest of her world had been female. Men frighten her, but women dont, Sam
realized. He could understand that. Back at Horn Hill he had preferred the company of girls as
well. His sisters had been kind to him, and though the other girls would sometimes taunt him,
cruel words were easier to shrug off than the blows and buffets he got from the other castle boys.
Even now, on the Cinnamon Wind, Sam felt more comfortable with Kojja Mo than with her
father, though that might be because she spoke the Common Tongue and he did not.
I like you too, Sam, whispered Gilly. And I like this drink. It tastes like fire.
Yes, Sam thought, a drink for dragons. Their cups were empty, so he went over to the cask and
filled them once again. The sun was low in the west, he saw, swollen to thrice its proper size. Its
ruddy light made Gillys face seem flushed and red. They drank a cup to Kojja Mo, and one to

Dallas boy, and one to Gillys babe back on the Wall. And after that nothing would do but to
drink two cups for Aemon of House Targaryen. May the Father judge him justly, Sam said,
sniffing. The sun was almost gone by the time they were done with Maester Aemon. Only a long
thin line of red still glowed upon the western horizon, like a slash across the sky. Gilly said that
the drink was making the ship spin round, so Sam helped her down the ladder to the womens
quarters in the bow of the ship.
There was a lantern hanging just inside the cabin, and he managed to bang his head on it going
in. Ow, he said, and Gilly said, Are you hurt? Let me see. She leaned close...
... and kissed his mouth.
Sam found himself kissing her back. I said the words, he thought, but her hands were tugging at
his blacks, pulling at the laces of his breeches. He broke off the kiss long enough to say, We
cant, but Gilly said, We can, and covered his mouth with her own again. The Cinnamon
Wind was spinning all around them and he could taste the rum on Gillys tongue and the next
thing her breasts were bare and he was touching them. I said the words, Sam thought again, but
one of her nipples found its way between his lips. It was pink and hard and when he sucked on it
her milk filled his mouth, mingling with the taste of rum, and he had never tasted anything so
fine and sweet and good. If I do this I am no better than Dareon, Sam thought, but it felt too good
to stop. And suddenly his cock was out, jutting upward from his breeches like a fat pink mast. It
looked so silly standing there that he might have laughed, but Gilly pushed him back onto her
pallet, hiked her skirts up around her thighs, and lowered herself onto him with a little whimpery
sound. That was even better than her nipples. Shes so wet, he thought, gasping. I never knew a
woman could get so wet down there. I am your wife now, she whispered, sliding up and down
on him. And Sam groaned and thought, No, no, you cant be, I said the words, I said the words,
but the only word he said was, Yes.
Afterward she went to sleep with her arms around him and her face across his chest. Sam
needed sleep as well, but he was drunk on rum and mothers milk and Gilly. He knew he ought
to crawl back to his own hammock in the mens cabin, but she felt so good curled up against him
that somehow he could not move.
Others came in, men and women both, and he listened to them kissing and laughing and mating
with one another. Summer Islanders. Thats how they mourn. They answer death with life. Sam
had read that somewhere, a long time ago. He wondered if Gilly knew, if Kojja Mo had told her
what to do.
He breathed the fragrance of her hair and stared at the lantern swinging overhead. Even the
Crone herself could not lead me safely out of this. The best thing he could do would be to slip
away and jump into the sea. If Im drowned, no one need ever know that I shamed myself and
broke my vows, and Gilly can find herself a better man, one who is not some big fat coward.
He awoke the next morning in his own hammock in the mens cabin, with Xhondo bellowing
about the wind. Wind is up, the mate kept shouting. Wake and work, Black Sam. Wind is
up. What Xhondo lacked in vocabulary he made up for in volume. Sam rolled from his

hammock to his feet, and regretted it at once. His head was fit to split, one of the blisters on his
palm had torn open in the night, and he felt as if he were about to retch.
Xhondo had no mercy, though, so all that Sam could do was struggle back into his blacks. He
found them on the deck beneath his hammock, all bundled up in one damp heap. He sniffed at
them to see how foul they were, and inhaled the smell of salt and sea and tar, wet canvas and
mildew, fruit and fish and blackbelly rum, strange spices and exotic woods, and a heady bouquet
of his own dried sweat. But Gillys smell was on them too, the clean smell of her hair and the
sweet smell of her milk, and that made him glad to wear them. He would have given much and
more for warm dry socks, though. Some sort of fungus had begun to grow between his toes.
The chest of books had not been near enough to buy passage for four from Braavos to Oldtown.
The Cinnamon Wind was shorthanded, however, so Quhuru Mo had agreed that he would take
them, provided that they worked their way. When Sam had protested that Maester Aemon was
too weak, the boy a babe in arms, and Gilly terrified of the sea, Xhondo only laughed, Black
Sam is big fat man. Black Sam will work for four.
If truth be told, Sam was so fumble-fingered that he doubted he was even doing the work of one
good man, but he did try. He scrubbed decks and rubbed them smooth with stones, he hauled on
anchor chains, he coiled rope and hunted rats, he sewed up torn sails, patched leaks with
bubbling hot tar, boned fish and chopped fruit for the cook. Gilly tried as well. She was better in
the rigging than Sam was, though from time to time the sight of so much empty water still made
her close her eyes.
Gilly, Sam thought, what am I going to do with Gilly?
It was a long hot sticky day, made longer by his pounding head. Sam busied himself with ropes
and sails and the other tasks that Xhondo set him, and tried not to let his eyes wander to the cask
of rum that held old Maester Aemons body... or to Gilly. He could not face the wildling girl
right now, not after what theyd done last night. When she came up on deck he went below.
When she went forward he went aft. When she smiled at him he turned away, feeling wretched. I
should have jumped into the sea whilst she was still asleep, he thought. I have always been a
craven, but I was never an oathbreaker till now.
If Maester Aemon had not died, Sam could have asked him what to do. If Jon Snow had been
aboard, or even Pyp and Grenn, he might have turned to them. Instead he had Xhondo. Xhondo
would not understand what I was saying. Or if he did, hed just tell me to fuck the girl again.
Fuck had been the first word of the Common Tongue that Xhondo had learned, and he was
very fond of it.
He was fortunate that the Cinnamon Wind was so big. Aboard the Blackbird Gilly could have
run him down in hardly any time at all. Swan ships, the great vessels from the Summer Isles
were called in the Seven Kingdoms, for their billowing white sails and for their figureheads,
most of which depicted birds. Large as they were, they rode the waves with a grace that was all
their own. With a good brisk wind behind them, the Cinnamon Wind could outrun any galley,
though she was helpless when becalmed. And she offered plenty of places for a craven to hide.

Near the end of Sams watch, he was finally cornered. He was climbing down a ladder when
Xhondo seized him by the collar. Black Sam come with Xhondo, he said, dragging him across
the deck and dumping him at the feet of Kojja Mo.
Far off to the north, a haze was visible low on the horizon. Kojja pointed at it. There is the
coast of Dorne. Sand and rocks and scorpions, and no good anchorage for hundreds of leagues.
You can swim there if you like, and walk to Oldtown. You will need to cross the deep desert and
climb some mountains and swim the Torentine. Or else you could go to Gilly.
You do not understand. Last night we...
... honored your dead, and the gods who made you both. Xhondo did the same. I had the child,
else I would have been with him. All you Westerosi make a shame of loving. There is no shame
in loving. If your septons say there is, your seven gods must be demons. In the isles we know
better. Our gods gave us legs to run with, noses to smell with, hands to touch and feel. What mad
cruel god would give a man eyes and tell him he must forever keep them shut, and never look at
all the beauty in the world? Only a monster god, a demon of the darkness. Kojja put her hand
between Sams legs. The gods gave you this for a reason too, for... what is your Westerosi
word?
Fucking, Xhondo offered helpfully.
Yes, for fucking. For the giving of pleasure and the making of children. There is no shame in
that.
Sam backed away from her. I took a vow. I will take no wife, and father no children. I said the
words.
She knows the words you said. She is a child in some ways, but she is not blind. She knows
why you wear the black, why you go to Oldtown. She knows she cannot keep you. She wants
you for a little while, is all. She lost her father and her husband, her mother and her sisters, her
home, her world. All she has is you, and the babe. So you go to her, or swim.
Sam looked despairingly at the haze that marked the distant shoreline. He could never swim so
far, he knew.
He went to Gilly. What we did... if I could take a wife, I would sooner have you than any
princess or highborn maiden, but I cant. I am still a crow. I said the words, Gilly. I went with
Jon into the woods and said the words before a heart tree.
The trees watch over us, Gilly whispered, brushing the tears from his cheeks. In the forest,
they see all... but there are no trees here. Only water, Sam. Only water.

CERSEI
The day had been cold and grey and wet. It had poured all morning, and even when the
rain stopped that afternoon the clouds refused to part. They never saw the sun. Such wretched
weather was enough to discourage even the little queen. Instead of riding with her hens and their
retinue of guardsmen and admirers, she spent all day in the Maidenvault with her hens, listening
to the Blue Bard sing.
Cerseis own day was little better, till evenfall. As the grey sky began to fade to black, they told
her that the Sweet Cersei had come in on the evening tide, and that Aurane Waters was without,
begging audience.
The queen sent for him at once. As soon as he strode into her solar, she knew his tidings were
good. Your Grace, he said with a broad smile, Dragonstone is yours.
How splendid. She took his hands and kissed him on the cheeks. I know Tommen will be
pleased as well. This will mean that we can release Lord Redwynes fleet, and drive the ironmen
from the Shields. The news from the Reach seemed to grow more dire with every raven. The
ironmen had not been content with their new rocks, it seemed. They were raiding up the Mander
in strength, and had gone so far as to attack the Arbor and the smaller islands that surrounded it.
The Redwynes had kept no more than a dozen warships in their home waters, and all those had
been overwhelmed, taken, or sunk. And now there were reports that this madman who called
himself Euron Crows Eye was even sending longships up Whispering Sound toward Oldtown.
Lord Paxter was taking on provisions for the voyage home when Sweet Cersei raised sail,
Lord Waters reported. I would imagine that by now his main fleet has put to sea.
Let us hope they enjoy a swift voyage, and better weather than today. The queen drew Waters
down into the window seat beside her. Do we have Ser Loras to thank for this triumph?
His smile vanished. Some will say so, Your Grace.
Some? She gave him a quizzical look. Not you?
I never saw a braver knight, Waters said, but he turned what could have been a bloodless
victory into a slaughter. A thousand men are dead, or near enough to make no matter. Most of
them our own. And not just common men, Your Grace, but knights and young lords, the best and
the bravest.
And Ser Loras himself?
He will make a thousand and one. They carried him inside the castle after the battle, but his
wounds are grievous. He has lost so much blood that the maesters will not even leech him.
Oh, how sad. Tommen will be heartbroken. He did so admire our gallant Knight of Flowers.
The smallfolk too, her admiral said. Well have maidens weeping into their wine all across
the realm when Loras dies.
He was not wrong, the queen knew. Three thousand smallfolk had crowded through the Mud
Gate to see Ser Loras off the day he sailed, and three of every four were women. The sight had
only served to fill her with contempt. She had wanted to scream at them that they were sheep, to
tell them that all that they could ever hope to get from Loras Tyrell was a smile and a flower.

Instead she had proclaimed him the boldest knight in the Seven Kingdoms, and smiled as
Tommen presented him with a jeweled sword to carry into battle. The king had given him a hug
as well, which had not been part of Cerseis plans, but it made no matter now. She could afford
to be generous. Loras Tyrell was dying.
Tell me, Cersei commanded. I want to know all of it, from the beginning to the end.
The room had grown dark by the time that he was done. The queen lit some candles and sent
Dorcas to the kitchens to bring them up some bread and cheese and a bit of boiled beef with
horseradish. As they supped, she bid Aurane to tell the tale again, so she would remember all the
details correctly. I do not want our precious Margaery to hear these tidings from a stranger, after
all, she said. I will tell her myself.
Your Grace is kind, said Waters with a smile. A wicked smile, the queen thought. Aurane did
not resemble Prince Rhaegar as much as she had thought. He has the hair, but so do half the
whores in Lys, if the tales are true. Rhaegar was a man. This is a sly boy, no more. Useful in his
way, though.
Margaery was in the Maidenvault, sipping wine and trying to puzzle out some new game from
Volantis with her three cousins. Though the hour was late, the guards admitted Cersei at once.
Your Grace, she began, it is best you hear the news from me. Aurane is back from
Dragonstone. Your brother is a hero.
I always knew he was. Margaery did not seem surprised. Why should she? She expected this,
from the moment Loras begged for the command. Yet by the time Cersei had finished with her
tale, tears glistened on the cheeks of the younger queen. Redwyne had miners working to drive
a tunnel underneath the castle walls, but that was too slow for the Knight of Flowers. No doubt
he was thinking of your lord fathers people suffering on the Shields. Lord Waters says he
ordered the assault not half a day after taking command, after Lord Stanniss castellan refused
his offer to settle the siege between them in single combat. Loras was the first one through the
breach when the ram broke the castle gates. He rode straight into the dragons mouth, they say,
all in white and swinging his morningstar about his head, slaying left and right.
Megga Tyrell was sobbing openly by then. How did he die? she asked. Who killed him?
No one man has that honor, said Cersei. Ser Loras took a quarrel through the thigh and
another through the shoulder, but he fought on gallantly, though the blood was streaming from
him. Later he suffered a mace blow that broke some ribs. After that... but no, I would spare you
the worst of it.
Tell me, said Margaery. I command it.
Command it? Cersei paused a moment, then decided she would let that pass. The defenders
fell back to an inner keep once the curtain wall was taken. Loras led the attack there as well. He
was doused with boiling oil.
Lady Alla turned white as chalk, and ran from the room.
The maesters are doing all they can, Lord Waters assures me, but I fear your brother is too
badly burned. Cersei took Margaery in her arms to comfort her. He saved the realm. When

she kissed the little queen upon the cheek, she could taste the salt of her tears. Jaime will enter
all his deeds in the White Book, and the singers will sing of him for a thousand years.
Margaery wrenched free of her embrace, so violently that Cersei almost fell. Dying is not
dead, she said.
No, but the maesters say
Dying is not dead!
I only want to spare you
I know what you want. Get out.
Now you know how I felt, the night my Joffrey died. She bowed, her face a mask of cool
courtesy. Sweet daughter. I am so sad for you. I will leave you with your grief.
Lady Merryweather did not appear that night, and Cersei found herself too restless to sleep. If
Lord Tywin could see me now, he would know he had his heir, an heir worthy of the Rock, she
thought as she lay abed with Jocelyn Swyft snoring softly into the other pillow. Margaery would
soon be weeping the bitter tears she should have wept for Joffrey. Mace Tyrell might weep as
well, but she had given him no cause to break with her. What had she done, after all, but honor
Loras with her trust? He had requested the command on bended knee whilst half her court looked
on.
When he dies I must raise a statue of him somewhere, and give him a funeral such as Kings
Landing has never seen. The smallfolk would like that. So would Tommen. Mace may even
thank me, poor man. As for his lady mother, if the gods are good this news will kill her.
The sunrise was the prettiest that Cersei had seen in years. Taena appeared soon thereafter, and
confessed to having spent the night consoling Margaery and her ladies, drinking wine and crying
and telling tales of Loras. Margaery is still convinced he will not die, she reported, as the
queen was dressed for court. She plans to send her own maester to look after him. The cousins
are praying for the Mothers mercy.
I shall pray as well. On the morrow, come with me to Baelors Sept, and we will light a
hundred candles for our gallant Knight of Flowers. She turned to her handmaid. Dorcas, bring
my crown. The new one, if you please. It was lighter than the old, pale spun gold set with
emeralds that sparkled when she turned her head.
There are four come about the Imp this morning, Ser Osmund said, when Jocelyn admitted
him.
Four? The queen was pleasantly surprised. A steady stream of informers had been making
their way to the Red Keep, claiming knowledge of Tyrion, but four in one day was unusual.
Aye, said Osmund. One brought a head for you.
I will see him first. Bring him to my solar. This time, let there be no mistakes. Let me be
avenged at long last, so Joff can rest in peace. The septons said that the number seven was sacred
to the gods. If so, perhaps this seventh head would bring her the balm her soul desired.
The man proved to be Tyroshi; short and stout and sweaty, with an unctuous smile that
reminded her of Varys and a forked beard dyed green and pink. Cersei misliked him on sight, but
was willing to overlook his flaws if he actually had Tyrions head inside the chest he carried. It

was cedar, inlaid with ivory in a pattern of vines and flowers, with hinges and clasps of white
gold. A lovely thing, but the queens only interest lay in what might be within. It is big enough,
at least. Tyrion had a grotesquely large head, for one so small and stunted.
Your Grace, the Tyroshi murmured, bowing low, I see you are as lovely as the tales. Even
beyond the narrow sea we have heard of your great beauty, and the grief that tears your gentle
heart. No man can restore your brave young son to you, but it is my hope I can at least offer you
some balm for your pain. He laid his hand upon his chest. I bring you justice. I bring you the
head of your valonqar.
The old Valyrian word sent a chill through her, though it also gave her a tingle of hope. The
Imp is no longer my brother, if he ever was, she declared. Nor will I say his name. It was a
proud name once, before he dishonored it.
In Tyrosh we name him Redhands, for the blood running from his fingers. A kings blood, and
a fathers. Some say he slew his mother too, ripping his way from her womb with savage claws.
What nonsense, Cersei thought. Tis true, she said. If the Imps head is in that chest, I shall
raise you to lordship and grant you rich lands and keeps. Titles were cheaper than dirt, and the
riverlands were full of ruined castles, standing desolate amidst untended fields and burned
villages. My court awaits. Open the box and let us see.
The Tyroshi threw open the box with a flourish, and stepped back smiling. Within, the head of a
dwarf reposed upon a bed of soft blue velvet, staring up at her.
Cersei took a long look. That is not my brother. There was a sour taste in her mouth. I
suppose it was too much to hope for, especially after Loras. The gods are never that good. This
man has brown eyes. Tyrion had one black eye and one green.
The eyes, just so... Your Grace, your brothers own eyes had... somewhat decayed. I took the
liberty of replacing them with glass... but of the wrong color, as you say.
That only annoyed her further. Your head may have glass eyes, but I do not. There are
gargoyles on Dragonstone that look more like the Imp than this creature. Hes bald, and twice
my brothers age. What happened to his teeth?
The man shrank before the fury in her voice. He had a fine set of gold teeth, Your Grace, but
we... I regret...
Oh, not yet. But you will. I ought to have him strangled. Let him gasp for breath until his face
turns black, the way my sweet son did. The words were on her lips.
An honest mistake. One dwarf looks so much like another, and... Your Grace will observe, he
has no nose...
He has no nose because you cut it off.
No! The sweat on his brow gave the lie to his denial.
Yes. A poisonous sweetness crept into Cerseis tone. At least you had that much sense. The
last fool tried to tell me that a hedge wizard had regrown it. Still, it seems to me that you owe
this dwarf a nose. House Lannister pays its debts, and so shall you. Ser Meryn, take this fraud to
Qyburn.

Ser Meryn Trant took the Tyroshi by the arm and hauled him off, still protesting. When they
were gone, Cersei turned to Osmund Kettleblack. Ser Osmund, get this thing out of my sight,
and bring in the other three who claim knowledge of the Imp.
Aye, Your Grace.
Sad to say, the three would-be informers proved no more useful than the Tyroshi. One said that
the Imp was hiding in an Oldtown brothel, pleasuring men with his mouth. It made for a droll
picture, but Cersei did not believe it for an instant. The second claimed to have seen the dwarf in
a mummers show in Braavos. The third insisted Tyrion had become a hermit in the riverlands,
living on some haunted hill. The queen made the same response to each. If you will be so good
as to lead some of my brave knights to this dwarf, you shall be richly rewarded, she promised.
Provided that it is the Imp. If not... well, my knights have little patience for deception, nor fools
who send them chasing after shadows. A man could lose his tongue. And quick as that, all three
informers suddenly lost faith, and allowed that perhaps it might have been some other dwarf they
saw.
Cersei had never realized there were so many dwarfs. Is the whole world overrun with these
twisted little monsters? she complained, whilst the last of the informers was being ushered out.
How many of them can there be?
Fewer than there were, said Lady Merryweather. May I have the honor of accompanying
Your Grace to court?
If you can bear the tedium, said Cersei. Robert was a fool about most things, but he was
right in one regard. It is wearisome work to rule a kingdom.
It saddens me to see Your Grace so careworn. I say, run off and play and leave the Kings
Hand to hear these tiresome petitions. We could dress as serving girls and spend the day amongst
the smallfolk, to hear what they are saying of the fall of Dragonstone. I know the inn where the
Blue Bard plays when he is not singing attendance on the little queen, and a certain cellar where
a conjurer turns lead into gold, water into wine, and girls into boys. Perhaps he would work his
spells on the two of us. Would it amuse Your Grace to be a man one night?
If I were a man I would be Jaime, the queen thought. If I were a man I could rule this realm in
my own name in place of Tommens. Only if you remained a woman, she said, knowing that
was what Taena wanted to hear. You are a wicked thing to tempt me so, but what sort of queen
would I be if I put my realm in the trembling hands of Harys Swyft?
Taena pouted. Your Grace is too diligent.
I am, Cersei allowed, and by days end I shall rue it. She slipped her arm through Lady
Merryweathers. Come.
Jalabhar Xho was the first to petition her that day, as befit his rank as a prince in exile. Splendid
as he looked in his bright feathered cloak, he had only come to beg. Cersei let him make his
usual plea for men and arms to help him regain Red Flower Vale, then said, His Grace is
fighting his own war, Prince Jalabhar. He has no men to spare for yours just now. Next year,
perhaps. That was what Robert always told him. Next year she would tell him never, but not
today. Dragonstone was hers.

Lord Hallyne of the Guild of Alchemists presented himself, to ask that his pyromancers be
allowed to hatch any dragons eggs that might turn up upon Dragonstone, now that the isle was
safely back in royal hands. If any such eggs remained, Stannis would have sold them to pay for
his rebellion, the queen told him. She refrained from saying that the plan was mad. Ever since
the last Targaryen dragon had died, all such attempts had ended in death, disaster, or disgrace.
A group of merchants appeared before her to beg the throne to intercede for them with the Iron
Bank of Braavos. The Braavosi were demanding repayment of their outstanding debts, it seemed,
and refusing all new loans. We need our own bank, Cersei decided, the Golden Bank of
Lannisport. Perhaps when Tommens throne was secure, she could make that happen. For the
nonce, all she could do was tell the merchants to pay the Braavosi usurers their due.
The delegation from the Faith was headed by her old friend Septon Raynard. Six of the
Warriors Sons escorted him across the city; together they were seven, a holy and propitious
number. The new High Septonor High Sparrow, as Moon Boy had dubbed himdid
everything by sevens. The knights wore swordbelts striped in the seven colors of the Faith.
Crystals adorned the pommels of their longswords and the crests of their greathelms. They
carried kite shields of a style not common since the Conquest, displaying a device not seen in the
Seven Kingdoms for centuries: a rainbow sword shining bright upon a field of darkness. Close to
a hundred knights had already come forth to pledge their lives and swords to the Warriors Sons,
Qyburn claimed, and more turned up every day. Drunk on the gods, the lot of them. Who would
have thought the realm contained so many of them?
Most had been household knights and hedge knights, but a handful were of high birth; younger
sons, petty lords, old men wanting to atone for the old sins. And then there was Lancel. She had
thought Qyburn must be japing when he had told her that her mooncalf cousin had forsaken
castle, lands, and wife and wandered back to the city to join the Noble and Puissant Order of the
Warriors Sons, yet there he stood with the other pious fools.
Cersei liked that not at all. Nor was she pleased by the High Sparrows endless truculence and
ingratitude. Where is the High Septon? she demanded of Raynard. It was him I summoned.
Septon Raynard assumed a regretful tone. His High Holiness sent me in his stead, and bade me
tell Your Grace that the Seven have sent him forth to battle wickedness.
How? By preaching chastity along the Street of Silk? Does he think praying over whores will
turn them back to virgins?
Our bodies were shaped by our Father and Mother so we might join male to female and beget
trueborn children, Raynard replied. It is base and sinful for women to sell their holy parts for
coin.
The pious sentiment would have been more convincing if the queen had not known that Septon
Raynard had special friends in every brothel on the Street of Silk. No doubt he had decided that
echoing the High Sparrows twitterings was preferable to scrubbing floors. Do not presume to
preach at me, she told him. The brothel keepers have been complaining, and rightly so.
If sinners speak, why should the righteous listen?

These sinners feed the royal coffers, the queen said bluntly, and their pennies help pay the
wages of my gold cloaks and build galleys to defend our shores. There is trade to be considered
as well. If Kings Landing had no brothels, the ships would go to Duskendale or Gulltown. His
High Holiness promised me peace in my streets. Whoring helps to keep that peace. Common
men deprived of whores are apt to turn to rape. Henceforth let His High Holiness do his praying
in the sept where it belongs.
The queen had expected to hear from Lord Gyles as well, but instead Grand Maester Pycelle
appeared, grey-faced and apologetic, to tell her that Rosby was too weak to leave his bed. Sad
to say, I fear Lord Gyles must join his noble forebears soon. May the Father judge him justly.
If Rosby dies, Mace Tyrell and the little queen will try and force Garth the Gross on me again.
Lord Gyles has had that cough for years, and it never killed him before, she complained. He
coughed through half of Roberts reign and all of Joffreys. If he is dying now, it can only be
because someone wants him dead.
Grand Maester Pycelle blinked in disbelief. Your Grace? Wh-who would want Lord Gyles
dead?
His heir, perhaps. Or the little queen. Some woman he once scorned. Margaery and Mace
and the Queen of Thorns, why not? Gyles is in their way. An old enemy. A new one. You.
The old man blanched. Y-your Grace japes. I... I have purged his lordship, bled him, treated
him with poultices and infusions... the mists give him some relief and sweetsleep helps with the
violence of his coughing, but he is bringing up bits of lung with the blood now, I fear.
Be that as it may. You will return to Lord Gyles and inform him that he does not have my
leave to die.
If it please Your Grace. Pycelle bowed stiffly.
There was more, and more, and more, each petitioner more boring than the last. And that
evening, when the last of them had finally gone and she was eating a simple supper with her son,
she told him, Tommen, when you say your prayers before bed, tell the Mother and the Father
that you are thankful you are still a child. Being king is hard work. I promise you, you will not
like it. They peck at you like a murder of crows. Every one wants a piece of your flesh.
Yes, Mother, said Tommen, in a sad tone. The little queen had told him of Ser Loras, she
understood. Ser Osmund said the boy had wept. He is young. By the time he is Joffs age he will
not recall what Loras looked like. I wouldnt mind them pecking, though, her son went on to
say. I should go to court with you every day, to listen. Margaery says
a deal too much, Cersei snapped. For half a groat Id gladly have her tongue torn out.
Dont you say that, Tommen shouted suddenly, his round little face turning red. You leave
her tongue alone. Dont you touch her. Im the king, not you.
She stared at him, incredulous. What did you say?
Im the king. I get to say who has their tongues torn out, not you. I wont let you hurt
Margaery. I wont. I forbid it.
Cersei took him by the ear and dragged him squealing to the door, where she found Ser Boros
Blount standing guard. Ser Boros, His Grace has forgotten himself. Kindly escort him to his

bedchamber and bring up Pate. This time I want Tommen to whip the boy himself. He is to
continue until the boy is bleeding from both cheeks. If His Grace refuses, or says one word of
protest, summon Qyburn and tell him to remove Pates tongue, so His Grace can learn the cost of
insolence.
As you command, Ser Boros huffed, glancing at the king uneasily. Your Grace, please come
with me.
As night fell over the Red Keep, Jocelyn kindled a fire in the queens hearth whilst Dorcas lit
the bedside candles. Cersei opened the window for a breath of air, and found that the clouds had
rolled back in to hide the stars. Such a dark night, Your Grace, murmured Dorcas.
Aye, she thought, but not so dark as in the Maidenvault, or on Dragonstone where Loras Tyrell
lies burned and bleeding, or down in the black cells beneath the castle. The queen did not know
why that occurred to her. She had resolved not to give Falyse another thought. Single combat.
Falyse should have known better than to marry such a fool. The word from Stokeworth was that
Lady Tanda had died of a chill in the chest, brought on by her broken hip. Lollys Lackwit had
been proclaimed Lady Stokeworth, with Ser Bronn her lord. Tanda dead and Gyles dying. It is
well that we have Moon Boy, or the court would be entirely bereft of fools. The queen smiled as
she lay her head upon the pillow. When I kissed her cheek, I could taste the salt of her tears.
She dreamt an old dream, of three girls in brown cloaks, a wattled crone, and a tent that smelled
of death.
The crones tent was dark, with a tall peaked roof. She did not want to go in, no more than she
had wanted to at ten, but the other girls were watching her, so she could not turn away. They
were three in the dream, as they had been in life. Fat Jeyne Farman hung back as she always did.
It was a wonder she had come this far. Melara Hetherspoon was bolder, older, and prettier, in a
freckly sort of way. Wrapped in roughspun cloaks with their hoods pulled up, the three of them
had stolen from their beds and crossed the tourney grounds to seek the sorceress. Melara had
heard the serving girls whispering how she could curse a man or make him fall in love, summon
demons and foretell the future.
In life the girls had been breathless and giddy, whispering to each other as they went, as excited
as they were afraid. The dream was different. In the dream the pavilions were shadowed, and the
knights and serving men they passed were made of mist. The girls wandered for a long while
before they found the crones tent. By the time they did all the torches were guttering out. Cersei
watched the girls huddling, whispering to one another. Go back, she tried to tell them. Turn
away. There is nothing here for you. But though she moved her mouth, no words came out.
Lord Tywins daughter was the first through the flap, with Melara close behind her. Jeyne
Farman came last, and tried to hide behind the other two, the way she always did.
The inside of the tent was full of smells. Cinnamon and nutmeg. Pepper, red and white and
black. Almond milk and onions. Cloves and lemongrass and precious saffron, and stranger
spices, rarer still. The only light came from an iron brazier shaped like a basilisks head, a dim
green light that made the walls of the tent look cold and dead and rotten. Had it been that way in
life as well? Cersei could not seem to remember.

The sorceress was sleeping in the dream, as once shed slept in life. Leave her be, the queen
wanted to cry out. You little fools, never wake a sleeping sorceress. Without a tongue, she could
only watch as the girl threw off her cloak, kicked the witchs bed, and said, Wake up, we want
our futures told.
When Maggy the Frog opened her eyes, Jeyne Farman gave a frightened squeak and fled the
tent, plunging headlong back into the night. Plump stupid timid little Jeyne, pasty-faced and fat
and scared of every shadow. She was the wise one, though. Jeyne lived on Fair Isle still. She had
married one of her lord brothers bannermen and whelped a dozen children.
The old womans eyes were yellow, and crusted all about with something vile. In Lannisport it
was said that she had been young and beautiful when her husband had brought her back from the
east with a load of spices, but age and evil had left their marks on her. She was short, squat, and
warty, with pebbly greenish jowls. Her teeth were gone and her dugs hung down to her knees.
You could smell sickness on her if you stood too close, and when she spoke her breath was
strange and strong and foul. Begone, she told the girls, in a croaking whisper.
We came for a foretelling, young Cersei told her.
Begone, croaked the old woman, a second time.
We heard that you can see into the morrow, said Melara. We just want to know what men
were going to marry.
Begone, croaked Maggy, a third time.
Listen to her, the queen would have cried if she had her tongue. You still have time to flee.
Run, you little fools!
The girl with the golden curls put her hands upon her hips. Give us our foretelling, or Ill go to
my lord father and have you whipped for insolence.
Please, begged Melara. Just tell us our futures, then well go.
Some are here who have no futures, Maggy muttered in her terrible deep voice. She pulled
her robe about her shoulders and beckoned the girls closer. Come, if you will not go. Fools.
Come, yes. I must taste your blood.
Melara paled, but not Cersei. A lioness does not fear a frog, no matter how old and ugly she
might be. She should have gone, she should have listened, she should have run away. Instead she
took the dagger Maggy offered her, and ran the twisted iron blade across the ball of her thumb.
Then she did Melara too.
In the dim green tent, the blood seemed more black than red. Maggys toothless mouth
trembled at the sight of it. Here, she whispered, give it here. When Cersei offered her hand,
she sucked away the blood with gums as soft as a newborn babes. The queen could still
remember how queer and cold her mouth had been.
Three questions may you ask, the crone said, once shed had her drink. You will not like my
answers. Ask, or begone with you.
Go, the dreaming queen thought, hold your tongue, and flee. But the girl did not have sense
enough to be afraid.
When will I wed the prince? she asked.

Never. You will wed the king.
Beneath her golden curls, the girls face wrinkled up in puzzlement. For years after, she took
those words to mean that she would not marry Rhaegar until after his father Aerys had died. I
will be queen, though? asked the younger her.
Aye. Malice gleamed in Maggys yellow eyes. Queen you shall be... until there comes
another, younger and more beautiful, to cast you down and take all that you hold dear.
Anger flashed across the childs face. If she tries I will have my brother kill her. Even then
she would not stop, willful child as she was. She still had one more question due her, one more
glimpse into her life to come. Will the king and I have children? she asked.
Oh, aye. Six-and-ten for him, and three for you.
That made no sense to Cersei. Her thumb was throbbing where shed cut it, and her blood was
dripping on the carpet. How could that be? she wanted to ask, but she was done with her
questions.
The old woman was not done with her, however. Gold shall be their crowns and gold their
shrouds, she said. And when your tears have drowned you, the valonqar shall wrap his hands
about your pale white throat and choke the life from you.
What is a valonqar? Some monster? The golden girl did not like that foretelling. Youre a
liar and a warty frog and a smelly old savage, and I dont believe a word of what you say. Come
away, Melara. She is not worth hearing.
I get three questions too, her friend insisted. And when Cersei tugged upon her arm, she
wriggled free and turned back to the crone. Will I marry Jaime? she blurted out.
You stupid girl, the queen thought, angry even now. Jaime does not even know you are alive.
Back then her brother lived only for swords and dogs and horses... and for her, his twin.
Not Jaime, nor any other man, said Maggy. Worms will have your maidenhead. Your death
is here tonight, little one. Can you smell her breath? She is very close.
The only breath we smell is yours, said Cersei. There was a jar of some thick potion by her
elbow, sitting on a table. She snatched it up and threw it into the old womans eyes. In life the
crone had screamed at them in some queer foreign tongue, and cursed them as they fled her tent.
But in the dream her face dissolved, melting away into ribbons of grey mist until all that
remained were two squinting yellow eyes, the eyes of death.
The valonqar shall wrap his hands about your throat, the queen heard, but the voice did not
belong to the old woman. The hands emerged from the mists of her dream and coiled around her
neck; thick hands, and strong. Above them floated his face, leering down at her with his
mismatched eyes. No, the queen tried to cry out, but the dwarfs fingers dug deep into her neck,
choking off her protests. She kicked and screamed to no avail. Before long she was making the
same sound her son had made, the terrible thin sucking sound that marked Joffs last breath on
earth.
She woke gasping in the dark with her blanket wound about her neck. Cersei wrenched it off so
violently that it tore, and sat up with her breasts heaving. A dream, she told herself, an old dream
and a tangled coverlet, thats all it was.

Taena was spending the night with the little queen again, so it was Dorcas asleep beside her.
The queen shook the girl roughly by the shoulder. Wake up, and find Pycelle. Hell be with
Lord Gyles, I expect. Fetch him here at once. Still half asleep, Dorcas stumbled from the bed
and went scampering across the chamber for her clothing, her bare feet rustling on the rushes.
Ages later, Grand Maester Pycelle entered shuffling, and stood before her with bowed head,
blinking his heavy-lidded eyes and struggling not to yawn. He looked as if the weight of the huge
maesters chain about his wattled neck was dragging him down to the floor. Pycelle had been old
as far back as Cersei could remember, but there was a time when he had also been magnificent:
richly clad, dignified, exquisitely courteous. His immense white beard had given him an air of
wisdom. Tyrion had shaved his beard off, though, and what had grown back was pitiful, a few
patchy tufts of thin, brittle hair that did little to hide the loose pink flesh beneath his sagging
chin. This is no man, she thought, only the ruins of one. The black cells robbed him of whatever
strength he had. That, and the Imps razor.
How old are you? Cersei asked, abruptly.
Four-and-eighty, if it please Your Grace.
A younger man would please me more.
His tongue flicked across his lips. I was but two-and-forty when the Conclave called me.
Kaeth was eighty when they chose him, and Ellendor was nigh on ninety. The cares of office
crushed them, and both were dead within a year of being raised. Merion came next, only six-and-
sixty, but he died of a chill on his way to Kings Landing. Afterward King Aegon asked the
Citadel to send a younger man. He was the first king I served.
And Tommen shall be the last. I need a potion from you. Something to help me sleep.
A cup of wine before bed will oft
I drink wine, you witless cretin. I require something stronger. Something that will not let me
dream.
You... Your Grace does not wish to dream?
What did I just say? Have your ears grown as feeble as your cock? Can you make me such a
potion, or must I command Lord Qyburn to rectify another of your failures?
No. There is no need to involve that... to involve Qyburn. Dreamless sleep. You shall have
your potion.
Good. You may go. As he turned toward the door, though, she called him back. One more
thing. What does the Citadel teach concerning prophecy? Can our morrows be foretold?
The old man hesitated. One wrinkled hand groped blindly at his chest, as if to stroke the beard
that was not there. Can our morrows be foretold? he repeated slowly. Mayhaps. There are
certain spells in the old books... but Your Grace might ask instead, Should our morrows be
foretold? And to that I should answer, No. Some doors are best left closed.
See that you close mine as you leave. She should have known that he would give her an
answer as useless as he was.
The next morning she broke her fast with Tommen. The boy seemed much subdued;
ministering to Pate had served its purpose, it would seem. They ate fried eggs, fried bread,

bacon, and some blood oranges newly come by ship from Dorne. Her son was attended by his
kittens. As she watched the cats frolic about his feet, Cersei felt a little better. No harm will ever
come to Tommen whilst I still live. She would kill half the lords in Westeros and all the common
people, if that was what it took to keep him safe. Go with Jocelyn, she told the boy after they
had eaten.
Then she sent for Qyburn. Is Lady Falyse still alive?
Alive, yes. Perhaps not entirely... comfortable.
I see. Cersei considered a moment. This man Bronn... I cannot say I like the notion of an
enemy so close. His power all derives from Lollys. If we were to produce her elder sister...
Alas, said Qyburn. I fear that Lady Falyse is no longer capable of ruling Stokeworth. Or,
indeed, of feeding herself. I have learned a great deal from her, I am pleased to say, but the
lessons have not been entirely without cost. I hope I have not exceeded Your Graces
instructions.
No. Whatever she had intended, it was too late. There was no sense dwelling on such things.
It is better if she dies, she told herself. She would not want to go on living without her husband.
Oaf that he was, the fool seemed fond of him. There is another matter. Last night I had a
dreadful dream.
All men are so afflicted, from time to time.
This dream concerned a witch woman I visited as a child.
A woods witch? Most are harmless creatures. They know a little herb-craft and some
midwifery, but elsewise...
She was more than that. Half of Lannisport used to go to her for charms and potions. She was
mother to a petty lord, a wealthy merchant upjumped by my grandsire. This lords father had
found her whilst trading in the east. Some say she cast a spell on him, though more like the only
charm she needed was the one between her thighs. She was not always hideous, or so they said. I
dont recall the womans name. Something long and eastern and outlandish. The smallfolk used
to call her Maggy.
Maegi?
Is that how you say it? The woman would suck a drop of blood from your finger, and tell you
what your morrows held.
Bloodmagic is the darkest kind of sorcery. Some say it is the most powerful as well.
Cersei did not want to hear that. This maegi made certain prophecies. I laughed at them at first,
but... she foretold the death of one of my bedmaids. At the time she made the prophecy, the girl
was one-and-ten, healthy as a little horse and safe within the Rock. Yet she soon fell down a well
and drowned. Melara had begged her never to speak of the things they heard that night in the
maegis tent. If we never talk about it well soon forget, and then it will be just a bad dream we
had, Melara had said. Bad dreams never come true. The both of them had been so young, that
had sounded almost wise.
Do you still grieve for this friend of your childhood? Qyburn asked. Is that what troubles
you, Your Grace?

Melara? No. I can hardly recall what she looked like. It is just... the maegi knew how many
children I would have, and she knew of Roberts bastards. Years before hed sired even the first
of them, she knew. She promised me I should be queen, but said another queen would come...
Younger and more beautiful, she said. ... another queen, who would take from me all I loved.
And you wish to forestall this prophecy?
More than anything, she thought. Can it be forestalled?
Oh, yes. Never doubt that.
How?
I think Your Grace knows how.
She did. I knew it all along, she thought. Even in the tent. If she tries I will have my brother
kill her.
Knowing what needed to be done was one thing, though; knowing how to do it was another.
Jaime could no longer be relied on. A sudden sickness would be best, but the gods were seldom
so obliging. How then? A knife, a pillow, a cup of hearts bane? All of those posed problems.
When an old man died in his sleep no one thought twice of it, but a girl of six-and-ten found
dead in bed was certain to raise awkward questions. Besides, Margaery never slept alone. Even
with Ser Loras dying, there were swords about her night and day.
Swords have two edges, though. The very men who guard her could be used to bring her down.
The evidence would need to be so overwhelming that even Margaerys own lord father would
have no choice but to consent to her execution. That would not be easy. Her lovers are not like to
confess, knowing it would mean their heads as well as hers. Unless...
The next day the queen came on Osmund Kettleblack in the yard, as he was sparring with one
of the Redwyne twins. Which one she could not say; she had never been able to tell the two of
them apart. She watched the swordplay for a while, then called Ser Osmund aside. Walk with
me a bit, she said, and tell me true. I want no empty boasting now, no talk of how a
Kettleblack is thrice as good as any other knight. Much may ride upon your answer. Your brother
Osney. How good a sword is he?
Good. Youve seen him. Hes not as strong as me nor Osfryd, but hes quick to the kill.
If it came to it, could he defeat Ser Boros Blount?
Boros the Belly? Ser Osmund chortled. Hes what, forty? Fifty? Half-drunk half the time, fat
even when hes sober. If he ever had a taste for battle, hes lost it. Aye, Your Grace, if Ser Boros
wants for killing, Osney could do it easy enough. Why? Has Boros done some treason?
No, she said. But Osney has.

BRIENNE
They came upon the first corpse a mile from the crossroads.
He swung beneath the limb of a dead tree whose blackened trunk still bore the scars of the
lightning that had killed it. The carrion crows had been at work on his face, and wolves had
feasted on his lower legs where they dangled near the ground. Only bones and rags remained
below his knees... along with one well-chewed shoe, half-covered by mud and mold.
What does he have in his mouth? asked Podrick.
Brienne had to steel herself to look. His face was grey and green and ghastly, his mouth open
and distended. Someone had shoved a jagged white rock between his teeth. A rock, or...
Salt, said Septon Meribald.
Fifty yards farther on they spied the second body. The scavengers had torn him down, so what
remained of him was strewn on the ground beneath a frayed rope looped about the limb of an
elm. Brienne might have ridden past him, unawares, if Dog had not sniffed him out and loped
into the weeds for a closer smell.
What do you have there, Dog? Ser Hyle dismounted, strode after the dog, and came up with a
halfhelm. The dead mans skull was still inside it, along with some worms and beetles. Good
steel, he pronounced, and not too badly dinted, though the lions lost his head. Pod, would you
like a helm?
Not that one. Its got worms in it.
Worms wash out, lad. Youre squeamish as a girl.
Brienne scowled at him. It is too big for him.
Hell grow into it.
I dont want to, said Podrick. Ser Hyle shrugged, and tossed the broken helm back into the
weeds, lion crest and all. Dog barked and went to lift his leg against the tree.
After that, hardly a hundred yards went by without a corpse. They dangled under ash and alder,
beech and birch, larch and elm, hoary old willows and stately chestnut trees. Each man wore a
noose around his neck, and swung from a length of hempen rope, and each mans mouth was
packed with salt. Some wore cloaks of grey or blue or crimson, though rain and sun had faded
them so badly that it was hard to tell one color from another. Others had badges sewn on their
breasts. Brienne spied axes, arrows, several salmon, a pine tree, an oak leaf, beetles, bantams, a
boars head, half a dozen tridents. Broken men, she realized, dregs from a dozen armies, the
leavings of the lords.
Some of the dead men had been bald and some bearded, some young and some old, some short,
some tall, some fat, some thin. Swollen in death, with faces gnawed and rotten, they all looked
the same. On the gallows tree, all men are brothers. Brienne had read that in a book, though she
could not recall which one.
It was Hyle Hunt who finally put words to what all of them had realized. These are the men
who raided Saltpans.

May the Father judge them harshly, said Meribald, who had been a friend to the towns aged
septon.
Who they were did not concern Brienne half so much as who had hanged them. The noose was
the preferred method of execution for Beric Dondarrion and his band of outlaws, it was said. If
so, the so-called lightning lord might well be near.
Dog barked, and Septon Meribald glanced about and frowned. Shall we keep a brisker pace?
The sun will soon be setting, and corpses make poor company by night. These were dark and
dangerous men, alive. I doubt that death will have improved them.
There we disagree, said Ser Hyle. These are just the sort of fellows who are most improved
by death. All the same, he put his heels into his horse, and they moved a little faster.
Farther on the trees began to thin, though not the corpses. The woods gave way to muddy fields,
tree limbs to gibbets. Clouds of crows rose screeching from the bodies as the travelers came near,
and settled again once they had passed. These were evil men, Brienne reminded herself, yet the
sight still made her sad. She forced herself to look at every man in turn, searching for familiar
faces. A few she thought she recognized from Harrenhal, but their condition made it hard to be
certain. None had a hounds head helm, but few had helms of any sort. Most had been stripped of
arms, armor, and boots before they were strung up.
When Podrick asked the name of the inn where they hoped to spend the night, Septon Meribald
seized upon the question eagerly, perhaps to take their minds off the grisly sentinels along the
roadside. The Old Inn, some call it. There has been an inn there for many hundreds of years,
though this inn was only raised during the reign of the first Jaehaerys, the king who built the
kingsroad. Jaehaerys and his queen slept there during their journeys, it is said. For a time the inn
was known as the Two Crowns in their honor, until one innkeep built a bell tower, and changed
it to the Bellringer Inn. Later it passed to a crippled knight named Long Jon Heddle, who took up
ironworking when he grew too old to fight. He forged a new sign for the yard, a three-headed
dragon of black iron that he hung from a wooden post. The beast was so big it had to be made in
a dozen pieces, joined with rope and wire. When the wind blew it would clank and clatter, so the
inn became known far and wide as the Clanking Dragon.
Is the dragon sign still there? asked Podrick.
No, said Septon Meribald. When the smiths son was an old man, a bastard son of the fourth
Aegon rose up in rebellion against his trueborn brother and took for his sigil a black dragon.
These lands belonged to Lord Darry then, and his lordship was fiercely loyal to the king. The
sight of the black iron dragon made him wroth, so he cut down the post, hacked the sign into
pieces, and cast them into the river. One of the dragons heads washed up on the Quiet Isle many
years later, though by that time it was red with rust. The innkeep never hung another sign, so
men forgot the dragon and took to calling the place the River Inn. In those days, the Trident
flowed beneath its back door, and half its rooms were built out over the water. Guests could
throw a line out their window and catch trout, its said. There was a ferry landing here as well, so
travelers could cross to Lord Harroways Town and Whitewalls.

We left the Trident south of here, and have been riding north and west... not toward the river
but away from it.
Aye, my lady, the septon said. The river moved. Seventy years ago, it was. Or was it eighty?
It was when old Masha Heddles grandfather kept the place. It was her who told me all this
history. A kindly woman, Masha, fond of sourleaf and honey cakes. When she did not have a
room for me, she would let me sleep beside the hearth, and she never sent me on my way without
some bread and cheese and a few stale cakes.
Is she the innkeep now? asked Podrick.
No. The lions hanged her. After they moved on, I heard that one of her nephews tried opening
the inn again, but the wars had made the roads too dangerous for common folk to travel, so there
was little custom. He brought in whores, but even that could not save him. Some lord killed him
as well, I hear.
Ser Hyle made a wry face. I never dreamed that keeping an inn could be so deadly dangerous.
It is being common-born that is dangerous, when the great lords play their game of thrones,
said Septon Meribald. Isnt that so, Dog? Dog barked agreement.
So, said Podrick, does the inn have a name now?
The smallfolk call it the crossroads inn. Elder Brother told me that two of Masha Heddles
nieces have opened it to trade once again. He raised his staff. If the gods are good, that smoke
rising beyond the hanged men will be from its chimneys.
They could call the place the Gallows Inn, Ser Hyle said.
By any name the inn was large, rising three stories above the muddy roads, its walls and turrets
and chimneys made of fine white stone that glimmered pale and ghostly against the grey sky. Its
south wing had been built upon heavy wooden pilings above a cracked and sunken expanse of
weeds and dead brown grass. A thatch-roofed stable and a bell tower were attached to the north
side. The whole sprawl was surrounded by a low wall of broken white stones overgrown by
moss.
At least no one has burned it down. At Saltpans, they had found only death and desolation. By
the time Brienne and her companions were ferried over from the Quiet Isle, the survivors had
fled and the dead had been given to the ground, but the corpse of the town itself remained, ashen
and unburied. The air still smelled of smoke, and the cries of the seagulls floating overhead
sounded almost human, like the lamentations of lost children. Even the castle had seemed forlorn
and abandoned. Grey as the ashes of the town around it, the castle consisted of a square keep
girded by a curtain wall, built so as to overlook the harbor. It was closed tight as Brienne and the
others led their horses off the ferry, nothing moving on its battlements but banners. It took a
quarter hour of Dog barking and Septon Meribald knocking on the front gate with his
quarterstaff before a woman appeared above them to demand their business.
By that time the ferry had departed and it had begun to rain. I am a holy septon, good lady,
Meribald had shouted up, and these are honest travelers. We seek shelter from the rain, and a
place by your fire for the night. The woman had been unmoved by his appeals. The closest inn
is at the crossroads, to the west, she replied. We want no strangers here. Begone. Once she

vanished, neither Meribalds prayers, Dogs barks, nor Ser Hyles curses could bring her back. In
the end they had spent the night in the woods, beneath a shelter made of woven branches.
There was life at the crossroads inn, though. Even before they reached the gate, Brienne heard
the sound: a hammering, faint but steady. It had a steely ring.
A forge, Ser Hyle said. Either they have themselves a smith, or the old innkeeps ghost is
making another iron dragon. He put his heels into his horse. I hope they have a ghostly cook as
well. A crisp roast chicken would set the world aright.
The inns yard was a sea of brown mud that sucked at the hooves of the horses. The clang of
steel was louder here, and Brienne saw the red glow of the forge down past the far end of the
stables, behind an oxcart with a broken wheel. She could see horses in the stables too, and a
small boy was swinging from the rusted chains of the weathered gibbet that loomed above the
yard. Four girls stood on the inns porch, watching him. The youngest was no more than two,
and naked. The oldest, nine or ten, stood with her arms protectively about the little one. Girls,
Ser Hyle called to them, run and fetch your mother.
The boy dropped from the chain and dashed off toward the stables. The four girls stood
fidgeting. After a moment one said, We have no mothers, and another added, I had one but
they killed her. The oldest of the four stepped forward, pushing the little one behind her skirts.
Who are you? she demanded.
Honest travelers seeking shelter. My name is Brienne, and this is Septon Meribald, who is
well-known through the riverlands. The boy is my squire, Podrick Payne, the knight Ser Hyle
Hunt.
The hammering stopped suddenly. The girl on the porch looked them over, wary as only a ten-
year-old can be. Im Willow. Will you be wanting beds?
Beds, and ale, and hot food to fill our bellies, said Ser Hyle Hunt as he dismounted. Are you
the innkeep?
She shook her head. Thats my sister Jeyne. Shes not here. All we have to eat is horse meat. If
you come for whores, there are none. My sister run them off. We have beds, though. Some
featherbeds, but more are straw.
And all have fleas, I dont doubt, said Ser Hyle.
Do you have coin to pay? Silver?
Ser Hyle laughed. Silver? For a nights bed and a haunch of horse? Do you mean to rob us,
child?
Well have silver. Else you can sleep in the woods with the dead men. Willow glanced
toward the donkey, and the casks and bundles on his back. Is that food? Where did you get it?
Maidenpool, said Meribald. Dog barked.
Do you question all your guests this way? asked Ser Hyle.
We dont have so many guests. Not like before the war. Its mostly sparrows on the roads
these days, or worse.
Worse? Brienne asked.
Thieves, said a boys voice from the stables. Robbers.

Brienne turned, and saw a ghost.
Renly. No hammerblow to the heart could have felled her half so hard. My lord? she gasped.
Lord? The boy pushed back a lock of black hair that had fallen across his eyes. Im just a
smith.
He is not Renly, Brienne realized. Renly is dead. Renly died in my arms, a man of one-and-
twenty. This is a only a boy. A boy who looked as Renly had, the first time he came to Tarth. No,
younger. His jaw is squarer, his brows bushier. Renly had been lean and lithe, whereas this boy
had the heavy shoulders and muscular right arm so often seen on smiths. He wore a long leather
apron, but under it his chest was bare. A dark stubble covered his cheeks and chin, and his hair
was a thick black mop that grew down past his ears. King Renlys hair had been that same coal
black, but his had always been washed and brushed and combed. Sometimes he cut it short, and
sometimes he let it fall loose to his shoulders, or tied it back behind his head with a golden
ribbon, but it was never tangled or matted with sweat. And though his eyes had been that same
deep blue, Lord Renlys eyes had always been warm and welcoming, full of laughter, whereas
this boys eyes brimmed with anger and suspicion.
Septon Meribald saw it too. We mean no harm, lad. When Masha Heddle owned this inn she
always had a honey cake for me. Sometimes she even let me have a bed, if the inn was not full.
Shes dead, the boy said. The lions hanged her.
Hanging seems your favorite sport in these parts, said Ser Hyle Hunt. Would that I had some
land hereabouts. Id plant hemp, sell rope, and make my fortune.
All these children, Brienne said to the girl Willow. Are they your... sisters? Brothers? Kin
and cousins?
No. Willow was staring at her, in a way that she knew well. Theyre just... I dont know...
the sparrows bring them here, sometimes. Others find their own way. If youre a woman, why
are you dressed up like a man?
Septon Meribald answered. Lady Brienne is a warrior maid upon a quest. Just now, though,
she is in need of a dry bed and a warm fire. As are we all. My old bones say its going to rain
again, and soon. Do you have rooms for us?
No, said the boy smith. Yes, said the girl Willow.
They glared at one another. Then Willow stomped her foot. They have food, Gendry. The little
ones are hungry. She whistled, and more children appeared as if by magic; ragged boys with
unshorn locks crept from under the porch, and furtive girls appeared in the windows overlooking
the yard. Some clutched crossbows, wound and loaded.
They could call it Crossbow Inn, Ser Hyle suggested.
Orphan Inn would be more apt, thought Brienne.
Wat, you help them with those horses, said Willow. Will, put down that rock, theyve not
come to hurt us. Tansy, Pate, run get some wood to feed the fire. Jon Penny, you help the septon
with those bundles. Ill show them to some rooms.
In the end they took three rooms adjoining one another, each boasting a featherbed, a chamber
pot, and a window. Briennes room had a hearth as well. She paid a few pennies more for some

wood. Will I sleep in your room, or Ser Hyles? Podrick asked as she was opening the shutters.
This is not the Quiet Isle, she told him. You can stay with me. Come the morrow she meant
for the two of them to strike out on their own. Septon Meribald was going on to Nutten,
Riverbend, and Lord Harroways Town, but Brienne saw no sense in following him any farther.
He had Dog to keep him company, and the Elder Brother had persuaded her that she would not
find Sansa Stark along the Trident. I mean to rise before the sun comes up, whilst Ser Hyle is
still sleeping. Brienne had not forgiven him for Highgarden... and as he himself had said, Hunt
had sworn no vows concerning Sansa.
Where will we go, ser? I mean, my lady?
Brienne had no ready answer for him. They had come to the crossroads, quite literally; the place
where the kingsroad, the river road, and the high road all came together. The high road would
take them east through the mountains to the Vale of Arryn, where Lady Sansas aunt had ruled
until her death. West ran the river road, which followed the course of the Red Fork to Riverrun
and Sansas great-uncle, who was besieged but still alive. Or they could ride the kingsroad north,
past the Twins and through the Neck with its bogs and marshes. If she could find a way past
Moat Cailin and whoever held it now, the kingsroad would bring them all the way to Winterfell.
Or I could take the kingsroad south, Brienne thought. I could slink back to Kings Landing,
confess my failure to Ser Jaime, give him back his sword, and find a ship to carry me home to
Tarth, as the Elder Brother urged. The thought was a bitter one, yet there was part of her that
yearned for Evenfall and her father, and another part that wondered if Jaime would comfort her
should she weep upon his shoulder. That was what men wanted, wasnt it? Soft helpless women
that they needed to protect?
Ser? My lady? I asked, where are we going?
Down to the common room, to supper.
The common room was crawling with children. Brienne tried to count them, but they would not
stand still even for an instant, so she counted some of them twice or thrice and others not at all,
until she finally gave it up. They had pushed the tables together in three long rows, and the older
boys were wrestling benches from the back. Older here meant ten or twelve. Gendry was the
closest thing to a man grown, but it was Willow shouting all the orders, as if she were a queen in
her castle and the other children were no more than servants.
If she were highborn, command would come naturally to her, and deference to them. Brienne
wondered whether Willow might be more than she appeared. The girl was too young and too
plain to be Sansa Stark, but she was of the right age to be the younger sister, and even Lady
Catelyn had said that Arya lacked her sisters beauty. Brown hair, brown eyes, skinny... could it
be? Arya Starks hair was brown, she recalled, but Brienne was not sure of the color of her eyes.
Brown and brown, was that it? Could it be that she did not die at Saltpans after all?
Outside, the last light of day was fading. Inside, Willow had four greasy tallow candles lit and
told the girls to keep the hearthfire burning high and hot. The boys helped Podrick Payne unpack
the donkey and carried in the salt cod, mutton, vegetables, nuts, and wheels of cheese, whilst
Septon Meribald repaired to the kitchens to take charge of the porridge. Alas, my oranges are

gone, and I doubt that I shall see another till the spring, he told one small boy. Have you ever
had an orange, lad? Squeezed one and sucked down that fine juice? When the boy shook his
head no, the septon mussed his hair. Then Ill bring you one, come spring, if you will be a good
lad and help me stir the porridge.
Ser Hyle pulled off his boots to warm his feet by the fire. When Brienne sat down next to him,
he nodded at the far end of the room. There are bloodstains on the floor over there where Dog is
sniffing. Theyve been scrubbed, but the blood soaked deep into the wood, and theres no getting
it out.
This is the inn where Sandor Clegane killed three of his brothers men, she reminded him.
Tis that, Hunt agreed, but who is to say that they were the first to die here... or that theyll
be the last.
Are you afraid of a few children?
Four would be a few. Ten would be a surfeit. This is a cacophony. Children should be wrapped
in swaddling clothes and hung upon the wall until the girls grow breasts and the boys are old
enough to shave.
I feel sorry for them. All of them have lost their mothers and fathers. Some have seen them
slain.
Hunt rolled his eyes. I forgot that I was talking to a woman. Your heart is as mushy as our
septons porridge. Can it be? Somewhere inside our swordswench is a mother just squirming to
give birth. What you really want is a sweet pink babe to suckle at your teat. Ser Hyle grinned.
You need a man for that, I hear. A husband, preferably. Why not me?
If you still hope to win your wager
What I want to win is you, Lord Selwyns only living child. Ive known men to wed lackwits
and suckling babes for prizes a tenth the size of Tarth. I am not Renly Baratheon, I confess it, but
I have the virtue of being still amongst the living. Some would say that is my only virtue.
Marriage would serve the both of us. Lands for me, and a castle full of these for you. He waved
his hand at the children. I am capable, I assure you. Ive sired at least one bastard that I know
of. Have no fear, I shant inflict her upon you. The last time I went to see her, her mother doused
me with a kettle of soup.
A flush crept up her neck. My fathers only four-and-fifty. Not too old to wed again and get a
son by his new wife.
Thats a risk... if your father weds again and if his bride proves fertile and if the babes a boy.
Ive made worse wagers.
And lost them. Play your game with someone else, ser.
So speaks a maid who has never played the game with anyone. Once you do youll take a
different view. In the dark youd be as beautiful as any other woman. Your lips were made for
kissing.
They are lips, said Brienne. All lips are the same.
And all lips are made for kissing, Hunt agreed pleasantly. Leave your chamber door
unbarred tonight, and I will steal into your bed and prove the truth of what I say.

If you do, youll be a eunuch when you leave. Brienne got up and walked away from him.
Septon Meribald asked if he might lead the children in a grace, ignoring the small girl crawling
naked across the table. Aye, said Willow, snatching up the crawler before she reached the
porridge. So they bowed their heads together and thanked the Father and the Mother for their
bounty... all but the black-haired boy from the forge, who crossed his arms against his chest and
sat glowering as the others prayed. Brienne was not the only one to notice. When the prayer was
done Septon Meribald looked across the table, and said, Do you have no love for the gods,
son?
Not for your gods. Gendry stood abruptly. I have work to do. He stalked out without a bite
of food.
Is there some other god he loves? asked Hyle Hunt.
The Lord of Light, piped one scrawny boy, nigh to six.
Willow hit him with her spoon. Ben Big Mouth. Theres food. You should be eating it, not
bothering mlords with talk.
The children fell upon the supper like wolves upon a wounded deer, quarreling over codfish,
tearing the barley bread to pieces, and getting porridge everywhere. Even the huge wheel of
cheese did not long survive. Brienne contented herself with fish and bread and carrots, whilst
Septon Meribald fed two morsels to Dog for every one he ate himself. Outside, a rain began to
fall. Inside, the fire crackled, and the common room was filled by the sounds of chewing, and
Willow smacking children with her spoon. One day that little girl will make some man a
frightful wife, Ser Hyle observed. That poor prentice boy, most like.
Someone should take him some food before its all gone.
Youre someone.
She wrapped a wedge of cheese, a heel of bread, a dried apple, and two chunks of flaky fried
cod in a square of cloth. When Podrick got up to follow her outside, she told him to sit back
down and eat. I will not be long.
The rain was coming down heavy in the yard. Brienne covered the food with a fold of her
cloak. Some of the horses whinnied at her as she made her way past the stables. They are hungry
too.
Gendry was at his forge, bare-chested beneath his leather apron. He was beating on a sword as
if he wished it were a foe, his sweat-soaked hair falling across his brow. She watched him for a
moment. He has Renlys eyes and Renlys hair, but not his build. Lord Renly was more lithe than
brawny... not like his brother Robert, whose strength was fabled.
It was not until he stopped to wipe his brow that Gendry saw her standing there. What do you
want?
I brought supper. She opened the cloth for him to see.
If I wanted food, I would have eaten some.
A smith needs to eat to keep his strength up.
Are you my mother?
No. She put down the food. Who was your mother?

Whats that to you?
You were born in Kings Landing. The way he spoke made her certain of it.
Me and many more. He plunged the sword into a tub of rainwater to quench it. The hot steel
hissed angrily.
How old are you? Brienne asked. Is your mother still alive? And your father, who was he?
You ask too many questions. He set down the sword. My mothers dead and I never knew
my father.
Youre a bastard.
He took it for an insult. Im a knight. That sword will be mine own, once its done.
What would a knight be doing working at a smithy? You have black hair and blue eyes, and
you were born in the shadow of the Red Keep. Has no one ever remarked upon your face?
Whats wrong with my face? Its not as ugly as yours.
In Kings Landing you must have seen King Robert.
He shrugged. Sometimes. At tourneys, from afar. Once at Baelors Sept. The gold cloaks
shoved us aside so he could pass. Another time I was playing near the Mud Gate when he come
back from a hunt. He was so drunk he almost rode me down. A big fat sot, he was, but a better
king than these sons of his.
They are not his sons. Stannis told it true, that day he met with Renly. Joffrey and Tommen
were never Roberts sons. This boy, though... Listen to me, Brienne began. Then she heard
Dog barking, loud and frantic. Someone is coming.
Friends, said Gendry, unconcerned.
What sort of friends? Brienne moved to the door of the smithy to peer out through the rain.
He shrugged. Youll meet them soon enough.
I may not want to meet them, Brienne thought, as the first riders came splashing through the
puddles into the yard. Beneath the patter of the rain and Dogs barking, she could hear the faint
clink of swords and mail from beneath their ragged cloaks. She counted them as they came. Two,
four, six, seven. Some of them were wounded, judging from the way they rode. The last man was
massive and hulking, as big as two of the others. His horse was blown and bloody, staggering
beneath his weight. All the riders had their hoods up against the lashing rain, save him alone. His
face was broad and hairless, maggot white, his round cheeks covered with weeping sores.
Brienne sucked in her breath and drew Oathkeeper. Too many, she thought, with a start of fear,
they are too many. Gendry, she said in a low voice, youll want a sword, and armor. These
are not your friends. Theyre no ones friends.
What are you talking about? The boy came and stood beside her, his hammer in his hand.
Lightning cracked to the south as the riders swung down off their horses. For half a heartbeat
darkness turned to day. An axe gleamed silvery blue, light shimmered off mail and plate, and
beneath the dark hood of the lead rider Brienne glimpsed an iron snout and rows of steel teeth,
snarling.
Gendry saw it too. Him.

Not him. His helm. Brienne tried to keep the fear from her voice, but her mouth was dry as
dust. She had a pretty good notion who wore the Hounds helm. The children, she thought.
The door to the inn banged open. Willow stepped out into the rain, a crossbow in her hands.
The girl was shouting at the riders, but a clap of thunder rolled across the yard, drowning out her
words. As it faded, Brienne heard the man in the Hounds helm say, Loose a quarrel at me and
Ill shove that crossbow up your cunt and fuck you with it. Then Ill pop your fucking eyes out
and make you eat them. The fury in the mans voice drove Willow back a step, trembling.
Seven, Brienne thought again, despairing. She had no chance against seven, she knew. No
chance, and no choice.
She stepped out into the rain, Oathkeeper in hand. Leave her be. If you want to rape someone,
try me.
The oulaws turned as one. One laughed, and another said something in a tongue Brienne did not
know. The huge one with the broad white face gave a malevolent hissssssssssssssss. The man in
the Hounds helm began to laugh. Youre even uglier than I remembered. Id sooner rape your
horse.
Horses, thats what we want, one of the wounded men said. Fresh horses, and some food.
There are outlaws after us. Give us your horses and well be gone. We wont do you harm.
Fuck that. The outlaw in the Hounds helm yanked a battle axe off his saddle. I want to cut
her bloody legs off. Ill set her on her stumps so she can watch me fuck the crossbow girl.
With what? taunted Brienne. Shagwell said they cut your manhood off when they took your
nose.
She meant it to provoke him, and it did. Bellowing curses, he came at her, his feet sending up
splashes of black water as he charged. The others stood back to watch the show, as she had
prayed they might. Brienne stayed as still as stone, waiting. The yard was dark, the mud slippery
underfoot. Better to let him come to me. If the gods are good, hell slip and fall.
The gods were not that good, but her sword was. Five steps, four steps, now, Brienne counted,
and Oathkeeper swept up to meet his rush. Steel crashed against steel as her blade bit through his
rags and opened a gash in his chainmail, even as his axe came crashing down at her. She twisted
aside, slashing at his chest again as she retreated.
He followed, staggering and bleeding, roaring rage. Whore! he boomed. Freak! Bitch! Ill
give you to my dog to fuck, you bloody bitch! His axe whirled in murderous arcs, a brutal black
shadow that turned silver every time the lightning flashed. Brienne had no shield to catch the
blows. All she could do was slide back away from him, darting this way and that as the axehead
flew at her. Once the mud gave way under her heel and she almost fell, but somehow she
recovered herself, though the axe grazed her left shoulder that time and left a blaze of pain in its
wake. You got the bitch! one of the others called, and another said, Lets see her dance away
from that one.
Dance she did, relieved that they were watching. Better that than have them interfere. She could
not fight seven, not alone, even if one or two were wounded. Old Ser Goodwin was long in his
grave, yet she could hear him whispering in her ear. Men will always underestimate you, he said,

and their pride will make them want to vanquish you quickly, lest it be said that a woman tried
them sorely. Let them spend their strength in furious attacks, whilst you conserve your own.
Wait and watch, girl, wait and watch. She waited, watching, moving sideways, then backwards,
then sideways again, slashing now at his face, now at his legs, now at his arm. His blows came
more slowly as his axe grew heavier. Brienne turned him so the rain was in his eyes, and stepped
back two quick steps. He wrenched his axe up once more, cursing, and lurched after her, one foot
sliding in the mud...
... and she leapt to meet his rush, both hands on her sword hilt. His headlong charge brought
him right onto her point, and Oathkeeper punched through cloth and mail and leather and more
cloth, deep into his bowels and out his back, rasping as it scraped along his spine. His axe fell
from limp fingers, and the two of them slammed together, Briennes face mashed up against the
dogs head helm. She felt the cold wet metal against her cheek. Rain ran down the steel in rivers,
and when the lightning flashed again she saw pain and fear and rank disbelief through the eye
slits. Sapphires, she whispered at him, as she gave her blade a hard twist that made him
shudder. His weight sagged heavily against her, and all at once it was a corpse that she
embraced, there in the black rain. She stepped back and let him fall...
... and Biter crashed into her, shrieking.
He fell on her like an avalanche of wet wool and milk-white flesh, lifting her off her feet and
slamming her down into the ground. She landed in a puddle with a splash that sent water up her
nose and into her eyes. All the air was driven out of her, and her head snapped down against
some half-buried stone with a crack. No, was all that she had time to say before he fell on top
of her, his weight driving her deeper into the mud. One of his hands was in her hair, pulling her
head back. The other groped for her throat. Oathkeeper was gone, torn from her grasp. She had
only her hands to fight him off, but when she slammed a fist into his face it was like punching a
ball of wet white dough. He hissed at her.
She hit him again, again, again, smashing the heel of her hand into his eye, but he did not seem
to feel her blows. She clawed at his wrists, but his grip just grew tighter, though blood ran from
the gouges where she scratched him. He was crushing her, smothering her. She pushed at his
shoulders to get him off her, but he was heavy as a horse, impossible to move. When she tried to
knee him in the groin, all she did was drive her knee into his belly. Grunting, Biter tore out a
handful of her hair.
My dagger. Brienne clutched at the thought, desperate. She worked her hand down between
them, fingers squirming under his sour, suffocating flesh, searching until they finally found the
hilt. Biter locked both his hands about her neck and began to slam her head against the ground.
The lightning flashed again, this time inside her skull, yet somehow her fingers tightened, pulled
the dagger from its sheath. With him on top of her, she could not raise the blade to stab, so she
drew it hard across his belly. Something warm and wet gushed between her fingers. Biter hissed
again, louder than before, and let go of her throat just long enough to smash her in the face. She
heard bones crack, and the pain blinded her for an instant. When she tried to slash at him again,

he wrenched the dagger from her fingers and slammed a knee down onto her forearm, breaking
it. Then he seized her head again and resumed trying to tear it off her shoulders.
Brienne could hear Dog barking, and men were shouting all about her, and between the claps of
thunder she heard the clash of steel on steel. Ser Hyle, she thought, Ser Hyle has joined the fight,
but all that seemed far away and unimportant. Her world was no larger than the hands at her
throat and the face that loomed above her. The rain ran off his hood as he leaned closer. His
breath stank like cheese gone rotten.
Briennes chest was burning, and the storm was behind her eyes, blinding her. Bones ground
against each other inside of her. Biters mouth gaped open, impossibly wide. She saw his teeth,
yellow and crooked, filed into points. When they closed on the soft meat of her cheek, she hardly
felt it. She could feel herself spiraling down into the dark. I cannot die yet, she told herself, there
is something I still need to do.
Biters mouth tore free, full of blood and flesh. He spat, grinned, and sank his pointed teeth into
her flesh again. This time he chewed and swallowed. He is eating me, she realized, but she had
no strength left to fight him any longer. She felt as if she were floating above herself, watching
the horror as if it were happening to some other woman, to some stupid girl who thought she was
a knight. It will be finished soon, she told herself. Then it will not matter if he eats me. Biter
threw back his head and opened his mouth again, howling, and stuck his tongue out at her. It was
sharply pointed, dripping blood, longer than any tongue should be. Sliding from his mouth, out
and out and out, red and wet and glistening, it made a hideous sight, obscene. His tongue is a
foot long, Brienne thought, just before the darkness took her. Why, it looks almost like a sword.

JAIME
The brooch that fastened Ser Brynden Tullys cloak was a black fish, wrought in jet and
gold. His ringmail was grim and grey. Over it he wore greaves, gorget, gauntlets, pauldron, and
poleyns of blackened steel, none half so dark as the look upon his face as he waited for Jaime
Lannister at the end of the drawbridge, alone atop a chestnut courser caparisoned in red and blue.
He loves me not. Tully had a craggy face, deeply lined and windburnt beneath a shock of stiff
grey hair, but Jaime could still see the great knight who had once enthralled a squire with tales of
the Ninepenny Kings. Honors hooves clattered against the planks of the drawbridge. Jaime had
thought long and hard about whether to wear his gold armor or his white to this meeting; in the
end, hed chosen a leather jack and a crimson cloak.
He drew up a yard from Ser Brynden, and inclined his head to the older man. Kingslayer, said
Tully.
That he would make that name the first word from his mouth spoke volumes, but Jaime was
resolved to keep his temper. Blackfish, he responded. Thank you for coming.
I assume you have returned to fulfill the oaths you swore my niece, Ser Brynden said. As I
recall, you promised Catelyn her daughters in return for your freedom. His mouth tightened.
Yet I do not see the girls. Where are they?
Must he make me say it? I do not have them.
Pity. Do you wish to resume your captivity? Your old cell is still available. We have put fresh
rushes on the floor.
And a nice new pail for me to shit in, I dont doubt. That was thoughtful of you, ser, but I fear
I must decline. I prefer the comforts of my pavilion.
Whilst Catelyn enjoys the comforts of her grave.
I had no hand in Lady Catelyns death, he might have said, and her daughters were gone before
I reached Kings Landing. It was on his tongue to speak of Brienne and the sword hed given her,
but the Blackfish was looking at him the way that Eddard Stark had looked at him when hed
found him on the Iron Throne with the Mad Kings blood upon his blade. I came to speak of the
living, not the dead. Of those who need not die, but shall...
... unless I hand you Riverrun. Is this where you threaten to hang Edmure? Beneath his bushy
brows, Tullys eyes were stone. My nephew is marked for death no matter what I do. So hang
him and be done with it. I expect that Edmure is as weary of standing on those gallows as I am of
seeing him there.
Ryman Frey is a bloody fool. His mummers show with Edmure and the gallows had only made
the Blackfish more obdurate, that was plain. You hold Lady Sybelle Westerling and three of her
children. Ill return your nephew in exchange for them.
As you returned Lady Catelyns daughters?
Jaime did not allow himself to be provoked. An old woman and three children for your liege
lord. Thats a better bargain than you could have hoped for.

Ser Brynden smiled a hard smile. You do not lack for gall, Kingslayer. Bargaining with
oathbreakers is like building on quicksand, though. Cat should have known better than to trust
the likes of you.
It was Tyrion she trusted in, Jaime almost said. The Imp deceived her too. The promises I
made to Lady Catelyn were wrung from me at swordpoint.
And the oath you swore to Aerys?
He felt his phantom fingers twitching. Aerys is no part of this. Will you exchange the
Westerlings for Edmure?
No. My king entrusted his queen to my keeping, and I swore to keep her safe. I will not hand
her over to a Frey noose.
The girl has been pardoned. No harm will come to her. You have my word on that.
Your word of honor? Ser Brynden raised an eyebrow. Do you even know what honor is?
A horse. I will swear any oath that you require.
Spare me, Kingslayer.
I want to. Strike your banners and open your gates and Ill grant your men their lives. Those
who wish to remain at Riverrun in service to Lord Emmon may do so. The rest shall be free to go
where they will, though I will require them to surrender their arms and armor.
I wonder, how far will they get, unarmed, before outlaws set upon them? You dare not allow
them to join Lord Beric, we both know that. And what of me? Will I be paraded through Kings
Landing to die like Eddard Stark?
I will permit you to take the black. Ned Starks bastard is the Lord Commander on the Wall.
The Blackfish narrowed his eyes. Did your father arrange for that as well? Catelyn never
trusted the boy, as I recall, no more than she ever trusted Theon Greyjoy. It would seem she was
right about them both. No, ser, I think not. Ill die warm, if you please, with a sword in hand
running red with lion blood.
Tully blood runs just as red, Jaime reminded him. If you will not yield the castle, I must
storm it. Hundreds will die.
Hundreds of mine. Thousands of yours.
Your garrison will perish to a man.
I know that song. Do you sing it to the tune of The Rains of Castamere? My men would
sooner die upon their feet fighting than on their knees beneath a headsmans axe.
This is not going well. This defiance serves no purpose, ser. The war is done, and your Young
Wolf is dead.
Murdered in breach of all the sacred laws of hospitality.
Freys work, not mine.
Call it what you will. It stinks of Tywin Lannister.
Jaime could not deny that. My father is dead as well.
May the Father judge him justly.

Now, theres an awful prospect. I would have slain Robb Stark in the Whispering Wood, if I
could have reached him. Some fools got in my way. Does it matter how the boy perished? Hes
no less dead, and his kingdom died when he did.
You must be blind as well as maimed, ser. Lift your eyes, and you will see that the direwolf
still flies above our walls.
Ive seen him. He looks lonely. Harrenhal has fallen. Seagard and Maidenpool. The Brackens
have bent the knee, and theyve got Tytos Blackwood penned up in Raventree. Piper, Vance,
Mooton, all your bannermen have yielded. Only Riverrun remains. We have twenty times your
numbers.
Twenty times the men require twenty times the food. How well are you provisioned, my
lord?
Well enough to sit here till the end of days if need be, whilst you starve inside your walls. He
told the lie as boldly as he could and hoped his face did not betray him.
The Blackfish was not deceived. The end of your days, perhaps. Our own supplies are ample,
though I fear we did not leave much in the fields for visitors.
We can bring food down from the Twins, said Jaime, or over the hills from the west, if it
comes to that.
If you say so. Far be it from me to question the word of such an honorable knight.
The scorn in his voice made Jaime bristle. There is a quicker way to decide the matter. A
single combat. My champion against yours.
I was wondering when you would get to that. Ser Brynden laughed. Who will it be?
Strongboar? Addam Marbrand? Black Walder Frey? He leaned forward. Why not you and me,
ser?
That would have been a sweet fight once, Jaime thought, fine fodder for the singers. When
Lady Catelyn freed me, she made me swear not to take arms again against the Starks or Tullys.
A most convenient oath, ser.
His face darkened. Are you calling me a coward?
No. I am calling you a cripple. The Blackfish nodded at Jaimes golden hand. We both know
you cannot fight with that.
I had two hands. Would you throw your life away for pride? a voice inside him whispered.
Some might say a cripple and an old man are well matched. Free me from my vow to Lady
Catelyn and I will meet you sword to sword. If I win, Riverrun is ours. If you slay me, well lift
the siege.
Ser Brynden laughed again. Much as I would welcome the chance to take that golden sword
away from you and cut out your black heart, your promises are worthless. I would gain nothing
from your death but the pleasure of killing you, and I will not risk my own life for that... as small
a risk as that may be.
It was a good thing that Jaime wore no sword; elsewise he would have ripped his blade out, and
if Ser Brynden did not slay him, the archers on the walls most surely would. Are there any
terms you will accept? he demanded of the Blackfish.

From you? Ser Brynden shrugged. No.
Why did you even come to treat with me?
A siege is deadly dull. I wanted to see this stump of yours and hear whatever excuses you
cared to offer up for your latest enormities. They were feebler than Id hoped. You always
disappoint, Kingslayer. The Blackfish wheeled his mare and trotted back toward Riverrun. The
portcullis descended with a rush, its iron spikes biting deep into the muddy ground.
Jaime turned Honors head about for the long ride back to the Lannister siege lines. He could
feel the eyes on him; the Tully men upon their battlements, the Freys across the river. If they are
not blind, theyll all know he threw my offer in my teeth. He would need to storm the castle.
Well, whats one more broken vow to the Kingslayer? Just more shit in the bucket. Jaime
resolved to be the first man on the battlements. And with this golden hand of mine, most like the
first to fall.
Back at camp, Little Lew held his bridle whilst Peck gave him a hand down from the saddle. Do
they think Im such a cripple that I cannot dismount by myself? How did you fare, my lord?
asked his cousin Ser Daven.
No one put an arrow in my horses rump. Elsewise, there was little to distinguish me from Ser
Ryman. He grimaced. So now he must needs turn the Red Fork redder. Blame yourself for
that, Blackfish. You left me little choice. Assemble a war council. Ser Addam, Strongboar,
Forley Prester, those river lords of ours... and our friends of Frey. Ser Ryman, Lord Emmon,
whoever else they care to bring.
They gathered quickly. Lord Piper and both Lords Vance came to speak for the repentant lords
of the Trident, whose loyalties would shortly be put to the test. The west was represented by Ser
Daven, Strongboar, Addam Marbrand, and Forley Prester. Lord Emmon Frey joined them, with
his wife. Lady Genna claimed her stool with a look that dared any man there to question her
presence. None did. The Freys sent Ser Walder Rivers, called Bastard Walder, and Ser
Rymans firstborn Edwyn, a pallid, slender man with a pinched nose and lank dark hair. Under a
blue lambswool cloak, Edwyn wore a jerkin of finely tooled grey calfskin with ornate scrollwork
worked into the leather. I speak for House Frey, he announced. My father is indisposed this
morning.
Ser Daven gave a snort. Is he drunk, or just greensick from last nights wine?
Edwyn had the hard mean mouth of a miser. Lord Jaime, he said, must I suffer such
discourtesy?
Is it true? Jaime asked him. Is your father drunk?
Frey pressed his lips together and eyed Ser Ilyn Payne, who was standing beside by the tent flap
in his rusted mail, his sword poking up above one bony shoulder. He... my father has a bad
belly, my lord. Red wine helps with his digestion.
He must be digesting a bloody mammoth, said Ser Daven. Strongboar laughed, and Lady
Genna chuckled.
Enough, said Jaime. We have a castle to win. When his father sat in council, he let his
captains speak first. He was resolved to do the same. How shall we proceed?

Hang Edmure Tully, for a start, urged Lord Emmon Frey. That will teach Ser Brynden that
we mean what we say. If we send Ser Edmures head to his uncle, it may move him to yield.
Brynden Blackfish is not moved so easily. Karyl Vance, the Lord of Wayfarers Rest, had a
melancholy look. A winestain birthmark covered half his neck and one side of his face. His own
brother could not move him to a marriage bed.
Ser Daven shook his shaggy head. We have to storm the walls, as Ive been saying all along.
Siege towers, scaling ladders, a ram to break the gate, thats whats needed here.
I will lead the assault, said Strongboar. Give the fish a taste of steel and fire, thats what I
say.
They are my walls, protested Lord Emmon, and that is my gate you would break. He drew
his parchment out of his sleeve again. King Tommen himself has granted me
Weve all seen your paper, nuncle, snapped Edwyn Frey. Why dont you go wave it at the
Blackfish for a change?
Storming the walls will be a bloody business, said Addam Marbrand. I propose we wait for a
moonless night and send a dozen picked men across the river in a boat with muffled oars. They
can scale the walls with ropes and grapnels, and open the gates from the inside. I will lead them,
if the council wishes.
Folly, declared the bastard, Walder Rivers. Ser Brynden is no man to be cozened by such
tricks.
The Blackfish is the obstacle, agreed Edwyn Frey. His helm bears a black trout on its crest
that makes him easy to pick out from afar. I propose that we move our siege towers close, fill
them full of bowmen, and feign an attack upon the gates. That will bring Ser Brynden to the
battlements, crest and all. Let every archer smear his shafts with night soil, and make that crest
his mark. Once Ser Brynden dies, Riverrun is ours.
Mine, piped Lord Emmon. Riverrun is mine.
Lord Karyls birthmark darkened. Will the night soil be your own contribution, Edwyn? A
mortal poison, I dont doubt.
The Blackfish deserves a nobler death, and Im the man to give it to him. Strongboar
thumped his fist on the table. I will challenge him to single combat. Mace or axe or longsword,
makes no matter. The old man will be my meat.
Why would he deign to accept your challenge, ser? asked Ser Forley Prester. What could he
gain from such a duel? Will we lift the siege if he should win? I do not believe that. Nor will he.
A single combat would accomplish nought.
I have known Brynden Tully since we were squires together, in service to Lord Darry, said
Norbert Vance, the blind Lord of Atranta. If it please my lords, let me go and speak with him
and try to make him understand the hopelessness of his position.
He understands that well enough, said Lord Piper. He was a short, rotund, bowlegged man
with a bush of wild red hair, the father of one of Jaimes squires; the resemblance to the boy was
unmistakeable. The mans not bloody stupid, Norbert. He has eyes... and too much sense to

yield to such as these. He made a rude gesture in the direction of Edwyn Frey and Walder
Rivers.
Edwyn bristled. If my lord of Piper means to imply
I dont imply, Frey. I say what I mean straight out, like an honest man. But what would you
know of the ways of honest men? Youre a treacherous lying weasel, like all your kin. Id sooner
drink a pint of piss than take the word of any Frey. He leaned across the table. Where is Marq,
answer me that? What have you done with my son? He was a guest at your bloody wedding.
And our honored guest he shall remain, said Edwyn, until you prove your loyalty to His
Grace, King Tommen.
Five knights and twenty men-at-arms went with Marq to the Twins, said Piper. Are they
your guests as well, Frey?
Some of the knights, perhaps. The others were served no more than they deserved. Youd do
well to guard your traitors tongue, Piper, unless you want your heir returned in pieces.
My fathers councils never went like this, Jaime thought, as Piper came lurching to his feet.
Say that with a sword in your hand, Frey, the small man snarled. Or do you only fight with
smears of shit?
Freys pinched face went pale. Beside him Walder Rivers rose. Edwyn is no man of the
sword... but I am, Piper. If you have more remarks to make, come outside and make them.
This is a war council, not a war, Jaime reminded them. Sit down, the both of you. Neither
man moved. Now!
Walder Rivers seated himself. Lord Piper was not so easy to cow. He muttered a curse and
strode from the tent. Shall I send men after him to drag him back, my lord? Ser Daven asked
Jaime.
Send Ser Ilyn, urged Edywn Frey. We only need his head.
Karyl Vance turned to Jaime. Lord Piper spoke from grief. Marq is his firstborn son. Those
knights who accompanied him to the Twins were nephews and cousins all.
Traitors and rebels all, you mean, said Edwyn Frey.
Jaime gave him a cold look. The Twins took up the Young Wolfs cause as well, he reminded
the Freys. Then you betrayed him. That makes you twice as treacherous as Piper. He enjoyed
seeing Edwyns thin smile curdle up and die. I have endured sufficient counsel for one day, he
decided. Were done. See to your preparations, my lords. We attack at first light.
The wind was blowing from the north as the lords filed from the tent. Jaime could smell the
stink of the Frey encampments beyond the Tumblestone. Across the water Edmure Tully stood
forlorn atop the tall grey gallows, with a rope around his neck.
His aunt departed last, her husband at her heels. Lord nephew, Emmon protested, this assault
on my seat... you must not do this. When he swallowed, the apple in his throat moved up and
down. You must not. I... I forbid it. He had been chewing sourleaf again; pinkish froth
glistened on his lips. The castle is mine, I have the parchment. Signed by the king, by little
Tommen. I am the lawful lord of Riverrun, and...

Not so long as Edmure Tully lives, said Lady Genna. He is soft of heart and soft of head, I
know, but alive, the man is still a danger. What do you mean to do about that, Jaime?
Its the Blackfish who is the danger, not Edmure. Leave Edmure to me. Ser Lyle, Ser Ilyn.
Attend me, if you would. Its time I paid a visit to those gallows.
The Tumblestone was deeper and swifter than the Red Fork, and the nearest ford was leagues
upstream. The ferry had just started across with Walder Rivers and Edwyn Frey when Jaime and
his men arrived at the river. As they awaited its return, Jaime told them what he wanted. Ser Ilyn
spat into the river.
When the three of them stepped off the ferry on the north bank, a drunken camp follower
offered to pleasure Strongboar with her mouth. Here, pleasure my friend, Ser Lyle said,
shoving her toward Ser Ilyn. Laughing, the woman moved to kiss Payne on the lips, then saw his
eyes and shrank away.
The paths between the cookfires were raw brown mud, mixed with horse dung and torn up by
hooves and boots alike. Everywhere Jaime saw the twin towers of House Frey displayed on
shield and banners, blue on grey, along with the arms of lesser Houses sworn to the Crossing: the
heron of Erenford, the pitchfork of Haigh, Lord Charltons three sprigs of mistletoe. The arrival
of the Kingslayer did not go unnoticed. An old woman selling piglets from a basket stopped to
stare at him, a knight with a half-familiar face went to one knee, and two men-at-arms pissing in
a ditch turned and sprayed each other. Ser Jaime, someone called after him, but he strode on
without turning. Around him he glimpsed the faces of men hed done his best to kill in the
Whispering Wood, where the Freys had fought beneath the direwolf banners of Robb Stark. His
golden hand hung heavy at his side.
Ryman Freys great rectangular pavilion was the largest in the camp; its grey canvas walls were
made of sewn squares to resemble stonework, and its two peaks evoked the Twins. Far from
being indisposed, Ser Ryman was enjoying some entertainment. The sound of a womans
drunken laughter drifted from within the tent, mingled with the strains of a woodharp and a
singers voice. I will deal with you later, ser, Jaime thought. Walder Rivers stood before his own
modest tent, talking with two men-at-arms. His shield bore the arms of House Frey with the
colors reversed, and a red bend sinister across the towers. When the bastard saw Jaime, he
frowned. Theres a cold suspicious look if ever I saw one. That one is more dangerous than any
of his trueborn brothers.
The gallows had been raised ten feet off the ground. Two spearmen were posted at the foot of
the steps. You cant go up without Ser Rymans leave, one told Jaime.
This says I can. Jaime tapped his sword hilt with a finger. The question is, will I need to step
over your corpse?
The spearmen moved aside.
Atop the gallows, the Lord of Riverrun stood staring at the trap beneath him. His feet were
black and caked with mud, his legs bare. Edmure wore a soiled silken tunic striped in Tully red
and blue, and a noose of hempen rope. At the sound of Jaimes footsteps, he raised his head and

licked his dry, cracked lips. Kingslayer? The sight of Ser Ilyn widened his eyes. Better a
sword than a rope. Do it, Payne.
Ser Ilyn, said Jaime. You heard Lord Tully. Do it.
The silent knight gripped his greatsword with both hands. Long and heavy it was, sharp as
common steel could be. Edmures cracked lips moved soundlessly. As Ser Ilyn drew the blade
back, he closed his eyes. The stroke had all Paynes weight behind it.
No! Stop. NO! Edwyn Frey came panting into view. My father comes. Fast as he can. Jaime,
you must...
My lord would suit me better, Frey, said Jaime. And you would do well to omit must from
any speech directed at me.
Ser Ryman came stomping up the gallows steps in company with a straw-haired slattern as
drunk as he was. Her gown laced up the front, but someone had undone the laces to the navel, so
her breasts were spilling out. They were large and heavy, with big brown nipples. On her head a
circlet of hammered bronze sat askew, graven with runes and ringed with small black swords.
When she saw Jaime, she laughed. Who in seven hells is this one?
The Lord Commander of the Kingsguard, Jaime returned with cold courtesy. I might ask the
same of you, my lady.
Lady? Im no lady. Im the queen.
My sister will be surprised to hear that.
Lord Ryman crowned me his very self. She gave a shake of her ample hips. Im the queen o
whores.
No, Jaime thought, my sweet sister holds that title too.
Ser Ryman found his tongue. Shut your mouth, slut, Lord Jaime doesnt want to hear some
harlots nonsense. This Frey was a thickset man with a broad face, small eyes, and a soft fleshy
set of chins. His breath stank of wine and onions.
Making queens, Ser Ryman? Jaime asked softly. Stupid. As stupid as this business with
Lord Edmure.
I gave the Blackfish warning. I told him Edmure would die unless the castle yielded. I had this
gallows built, to show them that Ser Ryman Frey does not make idle threats. At Seagard my son
Walder did the same with Patrek Mallister and Lord Jason bent the knee, but... the Blackfish is a
cold man. He refused us, so...
... you hanged Lord Edmure?
The man reddened. My lord grandfather... if we hang the man we have no hostage, ser. Have
you considered that?
Only a fool makes threats hes not prepared to carry out. If I were to threaten to hit you unless
you shut your mouth, and you presumed to speak, what do you think Id do?
Ser, you do not unders
Jaime hit him. It was a backhand blow delivered with his golden hand, but the force of it sent
Ser Ryman stumbling backward into the arms of his whore. You have a fat head, Ser Ryman,
and a thick neck as well. Ser Ilyn, how many strokes would it take you to cut through that neck?

Ser Ilyn laid a single finger against his nose.
Jaime laughed. An empty boast. I say three.
Ryman Frey went to his knees. I have done nothing...
... but drink and whore. I know.
I am heir to the Crossing. You cant...
I warned you about talking. Jaime watched the man turn white. A sot, a fool, and a craven.
Lord Walder had best outlive this one, or the Freys are done. You are dismissed, ser.
Dismissed?
You heard me. Go away.
But... where should I go?
To hell or home, as you prefer. See that you are not in camp when the sun comes up. You may
take your queen of whores, but not that crown of hers. Jaime turned from Ser Ryman to his son.
Edwyn, I am giving you your fathers command. Try not to be so stupid as your sire.
That ought not pose much difficulty, my lord.
Send word to Lord Walder. The crown requires all his prisoners. Jaime waved his golden
hand. Ser Lyle, bring him.
Edmure Tully had collapsed facedown on the scaffold when Ser Ilyns blade sheared the rope in
two. A foot of hemp still dangled from the noose about his neck. Strongboar grabbed the end of
it and pulled him to his feet. A fish on a leash, he said, chortling. Theres a sight I never saw
before.
The Freys stepped aside to let them pass. A crowd had gathered below the scaffold, including a
dozen camp followers in various states of disarray. Jaime noticed one man holding a woodharp.
You. Singer. Come with me.
The man doffed his hat. As my lord commands.
No one said a word as they walked back to the ferry, with Ser Rymans singer trailing after
them. But as they shoved off from the riverbank and made for the south side of the Tumblestone,
Edmure Tully grabbed Jaime by the arm. Why?
A Lannister pays his debts, he thought, and youre the only coin thats left to me. Consider it a
wedding gift.
Edmure stared at him with wary eyes. A... wedding gift?
I am told your wife is pretty. Shed have to be, for you to bed her while your sister and your
king were being murdered.
I never knew. Edmure licked his cracked lips. There were fiddlers outside the bedchamber..
And Lady Roslin was distracting you.
She... they made her do it, Lord Walder and the rest. Roslin never wanted... she wept, but I
thought it was...
The sight of your rampant manhood? Aye, that would make any woman weep, Im sure.
She is carrying my child.
No, Jaime thought, thats your death she has growing in her belly. Back at his pavilion, he
dismissed Strongboar and Ser Ilyn, but not the singer. I may have need of a song shortly, he

told the man. Lew, heat some bathwater for my guest. Pia, find him some clean clothing.
Nothing with lions on it, if you please. Peck, wine for Lord Tully. Are you hungry, my lord?
Edmure nodded, but his eyes were still suspicious.
Jaime settled on a stool while Tully had his bath. The filth came off in grey clouds. Once
youve eaten, my men will escort you to Riverrun. What happens after that is up to you.
What do you mean?
Your uncle is an old man. Valiant, yes, but the best part of his life is done. He has no bride to
grieve for him, no children to defend. A good death is all the Blackfish can hope for... but you
have years remaining, Edmure. And you are the rightful lord of House Tully, not him. Your
uncle serves at your pleasure. The fate of Riverrun is in your hands.
Edmure stared. The fate of Riverrun...
Yield the castle and no one dies. Your smallfolk may go in peace or stay to serve Lord
Emmon. Ser Brynden will be allowed to take the black, along with as many of the garrison as
choose to join him. You as well, if the Wall appeals to you. Or you may go to Casterly Rock as
my captive and enjoy all the comforts and courtesy that befits a hostage of your rank. Ill send
your wife to join you, if you like. If her child is a boy, he will serve House Lannister as a page
and a squire, and when he earns his knighthood well bestow some lands upon him. Should
Roslin give you a daughter, Ill see her well dowered when shes old enough to wed. You
yourself may even be granted parole, once the war is done. All you need do is yield the castle.
Edmure raised his hands from the tub and watched the water run between his fingers. And if I
will not yield?
Must you make me say the words? Pia was standing by the flap of the tent with her arms full of
clothes. His squires were listening as well, and the singer. Let them hear, Jaime thought. Let the
world hear. It makes no matter. He forced himself to smile, Youve seen our numbers, Edmure.
Youve seen the ladders, the towers, the trebuchets, the rams. If I speak the command, my coz
will bridge your moat and break your gate. Hundreds will die, most of them your own. Your
former bannermen will make up the first wave of attackers, so youll start your day by killing the
fathers and brothers of men who died for you at the Twins. The second wave will be Freys, I
have no lack of those. My westermen will follow when your archers are short of arrows and your
knights so weary they can hardly lift their blades. When the castle falls, all those inside will be
put to the sword. Your herds will be butchered, your godswood will be felled, your keeps and
towers will burn. Ill pull your walls down, and divert the Tumblestone over the ruins. By the
time Im done no man will ever know that a castle once stood here. Jaime got to his feet. Your
wife may whelp before that. Youll want your child, I expect. Ill send him to you when hes
born. With a trebuchet.
Silence followed his speech. Edmure sat in his bath. Pia clutched the clothing to her breasts.
The singer tightened a string on his harp. Little Lew hollowed out a loaf of stale bread to make a
trencher, pretending that he had not heard. With a trebuchet, Jaime thought. If his aunt had been
there, would she still say Tyrion was Tywins son?

Edmure Tully finally found his voice. I could climb out of this tub and kill you where you
stand, Kingslayer.
You could try. Jaime waited. When Edmure made no move to rise, he said, Ill leave you to
enjoy your food. Singer, play for our guest whilst he eats. You know the song, I trust.
The one about the rain? Aye, my lord. I know it.
Edmure seemed to see the man for the first time. No. Not him. Get him away from me.
Why, its just a song, said Jaime. He cannot have that bad a voice.

CERSEI
Grand Maester Pycelle had been old for as long as she had known him, but he seemed to
have aged another hundred years in the past three nights. It took him an eternity to bend his
creaky knee before her, and once he had he could not rise again until Ser Osmund jerked him to
his feet.
Cersei studied him with displeasure. Lord Qyburn informs me that Lord Gyles has coughed his
last.
Yes, Your Grace. I did my best to ease his passing.
Did you? The queen turned to Lady Merryweather. I did say I wanted Rosby alive, did I
not?
You did, Your Grace.
Ser Osmund, what is your recollection of the conversation?
You commanded Grand Maester Pycelle to save the man, Your Grace. We all heard.
Pycelles mouth opened and closed. Your Grace must know, I did all that could be done for
the poor man.
As you did for Joffrey? And his father, my own beloved husband? Robert was as strong as any
man in the Seven Kingdoms, yet you lost him to a boar. Oh, and let us not forget Jon Arryn. No
doubt you would have killed Ned Stark as well, if I had let you keep him longer. Tell me,
maester, was it at the Citadel that you learned to wring your hands and make excuses?
Her voice made the old man flinch. No man could have done more, Your Grace. I... I have
always given leal service.
When you counseled King Aerys to open his gates as my fathers host approached, was that
your notion of leal service?
That... I misjudged the...
Was that good counsel?
Your Grace must surely know...
What I know is that when my son was poisoned you proved to be of less use than Moon Boy.
What I know is that the crown has desperate need of gold, and our lord treasurer is dead.
The old fool seized upon that. I... I shall draw up a list of men suitable to take Lord Gyless
place upon the council.
A list. Cersei was amused by his presumption. I can well imagine the sort of list you would
provide me. Greybeards and grasping fools and Garth the Gross. Her lips tightened. You have
been much in Lady Margaerys company of late.
Yes. Yes, I... Queen Margaery has been most distraught about Ser Loras. I provide Her Grace
with sleeping draughts and... other sorts of potions.
No doubt. Tell me, was it our little queen who commanded you to kill Lord Gyles?
K-kill? Grand Maester Pycelles eyes grew as big as boiled eggs. Your Grace cannot
believe... it was his cough, by all the gods, I... Her Grace would not... she bore Lord Gyles no ill
will, why would Queen Margaery want him...

... dead? Why, to plant another rose on Tommens council. Are you blind or bought? Rosby
stood in her way, so she put him in his grave. With your connivance.
Your Grace, I swear to you, Lord Gyles perished from his cough. His mouth was quivering.
My loyalty has always been to the crown, to the realm... t-to House Lannister.
In that order? Pycelles fear was palpable. He is ripe enough. Time to squeeze the fruit and taste
the juice. If you are as leal as you claim, why are you lying to me? Do not trouble to deny it.
You began to dance attendance on Maid Margaery before Ser Loras went to Dragonstone, so
spare me further fables about how you want only to console our good-daughter in her grief. What
brings you to the Maidenvault so often? Not Margaerys vapid conversation, surely? Are you
courting that pox-faced septa of hers? Diddling little Lady Bulwer? Do you play the spy for her,
informing on me to serve her plots?
I... I obey. A maester takes an oath of service...
A grand maester swears to serve the realm.
Your Grace, she... she is the queen...
I am the queen.
I meant... she is the kings wife, and...
I know who she is. What I want to know is why she has need of you. Is my good-daughter
unwell?
Unwell? The old man plucked at the thing he called a beard, that patched growth of thin
white hair sprouting from the loose pink wattles under his chin. N-not unwell, Your Grace, not
as such. My oaths forbid me to divulge...
Your oaths will be of small comfort in the black cells, she warned him. Ill hear the truth, or
youll wear chains.
Pycelle collapsed to his knees. I beg you... I was your lord fathers man, and a friend to you in
the matter of Lord Arryn. I could not survive the dungeons, not again...
Why does Margaery send for you?
She desires... she... she...
Say it!
He cringed. Moon tea, he whispered. Moon tea, for...
I know what moon tea is for. There it is. Very well. Get off those saggy knees and try to
remember what it was to be a man. Pycelle struggled to rise, but took so long about it that she
had to tell Osmund Kettleblack to give him another yank. As to Lord Gyles, no doubt our
Father Above will judge him justly. He left no children?
No children of his body, but there is a ward...
... not of his blood. Cersei dismissed that annoyance with a flick of her hand. Gyles knew of
our dire need for gold. No doubt he told you of his wish to leave all his lands and wealth to
Tommen. Rosbys gold would help refresh their coffers, and Rosbys lands and castle could be
bestowed upon one of her own as a reward for leal service. Lord Waters, perhaps. Aurane had
been hinting at his need for a seat; his lordship was only an empty honor without one. He had his

eye on Dragonstone, Cersei knew, but there he aimed too high. Rosby would be more suitable to
his birth and station.
Lord Gyles loved His Grace with all his heart, Pycelle was saying, but... his ward...
... will doubtless understand, once he hears you speak of Lord Gyless dying wish. Go, and see
it done.
If it please Your Grace. Grand Maester Pycelle almost tripped over his own robes in his haste
to leave.
Lady Merryweather closed the door behind him. Moon tea, she said, as she turned back to the
queen. How foolish of her. Why would she do such a thing, take such a risk?
The little queen has appetites that Tommen is as yet too young to satisfy. That was always a
danger, when a grown woman was married to a child. Even more so with a widow. She may
claim that Renly never touched her, but I will not believe it. Women only drank moon tea for one
reason; maidens had no need for it at all. My son has been betrayed. Margaery has a lover. That
is high treason, punishable by death. She could only hope that Mace Tyrells prune-faced
harridan of a mother lived long enough to see the trial. By insisting that Tommen and Margaery
be wed at once, Lady Olenna had condemned her precious rose to a headsmans sword. Jaime
made off with Ser Ilyn Payne. I suppose I shall need to find a new Kings Justice to snick her
head off.
Ill do it, offered Osmund Kettleblack, with an easy grin. Margaerys got a pretty little neck.
A good sharp sword will go right through it.
It would, said Taena, but there is a Tyrell army at Storms End and another at Maidenpool.
They have sharp swords as well.
I am awash in roses. It was vexing. She still had need of Mace Tyrell, if not his daughter. At
least until such time as Stannis is defeated. Then I shant need any of them. But how could she
rid herself of the daughter without losing the father? Treason is treason, she said, but we must
have proof, something more substantial than moon tea. If she is proved to be untrue, even her
own lord father must condemn her, or her shame becomes his own.
Kettleblack chewed on one end of his mustache. We need to catch them during the deed.
How? Qyburn has eyes on her day and night. Her serving men take my coin, but bring us only
trifles. Yet no one has seen this lover. The ears outside her door hear singing, laughter, gossip,
nothing of any use.
Margaery is too shrewd to be caught so easily, said Lady Merryweather. Her women are her
castle walls. They sleep with her, dress her, pray with her, read with her, sew with her. When she
is not hawking or riding she is playing come-into-my-castle with little Alysanne Bulwer.
Whenever men are about, her septa will be with her, or her cousins.
She must rid herself of her hens sometime, the queen insisted. A thought struck her. Unless
her ladies are part of it as well... not all of them, perhaps, but some.
The cousins? Even Taena sounded doubtful. All three are younger than the little queen, and
more innocent.

Wantons clad in maidens white. That only makes their sins more shocking. Their names will
live in shame. Suddenly the queen could almost taste it. Taena, your lord husband is my
justiciar. The two of you must sup with me, this very night. She wanted this done quickly,
before Margaery took it in her little head to return to Highgarden, or sail to Dragonstone to be
with her wounded brother at deaths door. I shall command the cooks to roast a boar for us. And
of course we must have some music, to help with our digestion.
Taena was very quick. Music. Just so.
Go and tell your lord husband and make arrangements for the singer, Cersei urged. Ser
Osmund, you may remain. We have much and more to discuss. I shall have need of Qyburn too.
Sad to say, the kitchens proved to have no wild boar on hand, and there was not time enough to
send out hunters. Instead, the cooks butchered one of the castle sows, and served them ham
studded with cloves and basted with honey and dried cherries. It was not what Cersei wanted, but
she made do. Afterward they had baked apples with a sharp white cheese. Lady Taena savored
every bite. Not so Orton Merryweather, whose round face remained blotched and pale from broth
to cheese. He drank heavily and kept stealing glances at the singer.
A great pity about Lord Gyles, Cersei said at last. I daresay none of us will miss his
coughing, though.
No. No, Id think not.
We shall have need of a new lord treasurer. If the Vale were not so unsettled, I would bring
back Petyr Baelish, but... I am minded to try Ser Harys in the office. He can do no worse than
Gyles, and at least he does not cough.
Ser Harys is the Kings Hand, said Taena.
Ser Harys is a hostage, and feeble even at that. It is time that Tommen had a more forceful
Hand.
Lord Orton lifted his gaze from his wine cup. Forceful. To be sure. He hesitated. Who... ?
You, my lord. It is in your blood. Your grandsire took my own fathers place as Hand to
Aerys. Replacing Tywin Lannister with Owen Merryweather had proved to be akin to replacing
a destrier with a donkey, to be sure, but Owen had been an old done man when Aerys raised him,
amiable if ineffectual. His grandson was younger, and... Well, he has a strong wife. It was a pity
Taena could not serve as Hand. She was thrice the man her husband was, and far more amusing.
She was also Myrish-born and female, however, so Orton must needs suffice. I have no doubt
that you are more able than Ser Harys. The contents of my chamber pot are more able than Ser
Harys. Will you consent to serve?
I... yes, of course. Your Grace does me great honor.
A greater one than you deserve. You have served me ably as justiciar, my lord. And will
continue to do so through these... trying times ahead. When she saw that Merryweather had
grasped her meaning, the queen turned to smile at the singer. And you must be rewarded as
well, for all the sweet songs you have played for us whilst we ate. The gods have given you a
gift.
The singer bowed. Your Grace is kind to say so.

Not kind, said Cersei, merely truthful. Taena tells me that you are called the Blue Bard.
I am, Your Grace. The singers boots were supple blue calfskin, his breeches fine blue wool.
The tunic he wore was pale blue silk slashed with shiny blue satin. He had even gone so far as to
dye his hair blue, in the Tyroshi fashion. Long and curly, it fell to his shoulders and smelled as if
it had been washed in rosewater. From blue roses, no doubt. At least his teeth are white. They
were good teeth, not the least bit crooked.
You have no other name?
A hint of pink suffused his cheeks. As a boy, I was called Wat. A fine name for a plowboy,
less fitting for a singer.
The Blue Bards eyes were the same color as Roberts. For that alone, she hated him. It is easy
to see why you are Lady Margaerys favorite.
Her Grace is kind. She says I give her pleasure.
Oh, Im certain of it. Might I see your lute?
If it please Your Grace. Beneath the courtesy, there was a faint hint of unease, but he handed
her the lute all the same. One does not refuse the queens request.
Cersei plucked a string and smiled at the sound. Sweet and sad as love. Tell me, Wat... the first
time you took Margaery to bed, was that before she wed my son, or after?
For a moment he did not seem to understand. When he did, his eyes grew large. Your Grace
has been misinformed. I swear to you, I never
Liar! Cersei smashed the lute across the singers face so hard the painted wood exploded into
shards and splinters. Lord Orton, summon my guards and take this creature to the dungeons.
Orton Merryweathers face was damp with fear. This... oh, infamy... he dared seduce the
queen?
I fear it was the other way around, but he is a traitor all the same. Let him sing for Lord
Qyburn.
The Blue Bard went white. No. Blood dripped from his lip where the lute had torn it. I
never... When Merryweather seized him by the arm, he screamed, Mother have mercy, no.
I am not your mother, Cersei told him.
Even in the black cells, all they got from him were denials, prayers, and pleas for mercy. Before
long, blood was streaming down his chin from all his broken teeth, and he wet his dark blue
breeches three times over, yet still the man persisted in his lies. Is it possible we have the wrong
singer? Cersei asked.
All things are possible, Your Grace. Have no fear. The man will confess before the night is
done. Down here in the dungeons, Qyburn wore roughspun wool and a blacksmiths leather
apron. To the Blue Bard he said, I am sorry if the guards were rough with you. Their courtesies
are sadly lacking. His voice was kind, solicitous. All we want from you is the truth.
Ive told you the truth, the singer sobbed. Iron shackles held him hard against the cold stone
wall.
We know better. Qyburn had a razor in his hand, its edge gleaming faintly in the torchlight.
He cut away the Blue Bards clothing, until the man was naked but for his high blue boots. The

hair between his legs was brown, Cersei was amused to see. Tell us how you pleasured the little
queen, she commanded.
I never... I sang, was all, I sang and played. Her ladies will tell you. They were always with us.
Her cousins.
How many of them did you have carnal knowledge of?
None of them. Im just a singer. Please.
Qyburn said, Your Grace, mayhaps this poor man only played for Margaery whilst she
entertained other lovers.
No. Please. She never... I sang, I only sang...
Lord Qyburn ran a hand up the Blue Bards chest. Does she take your nipples in her mouth
during your love play? He took one between his thumb and forefinger, and twisted. Some men
enjoy that. Their nipples are as sensitive as a womans. The razor flashed, the singer shrieked.
On his chest a wet red eye wept blood. Cersei felt ill. Part of her wanted to close her eyes, to turn
away, to make it stop. But she was the queen and this was treason. Lord Tywin would not have
turned away.
In the end the Blue Bard told them his whole life, back to his first name day. His father had
been a chandler and Wat was raised to that trade, but as a boy he found he had more skill at
making lutes than barrels. When he was twelve he ran off to join a troupe of musicians he had
heard performing at a fair. He had wandered half the Reach before coming to Kings Landing in
hopes of finding favor at court.
Favor? Qyburn chuckled. Is that what women call it now? I fear you found too much of it,
my friend... and from the wrong queen. The true one stands before you.
Yes. Cersei blamed Margaery Tyrell for this. If not for her, Wat might have lived a long and
fruitful life, singing his little songs and bedding pig girls and crofters daughters. Her scheming
forced this on me. She has soiled me with her treachery.
By dawn the singers high blue boots were full of blood, and he had told them how Margaery
would fondle herself as she watched her cousins pleasuring him with their mouths. At other
times he would sing for her whilst she sated her lusts with other lovers. Who were they? the
queen demanded, and the wretched Wat named Ser Tallad the Tall, Lambert Turnberry, Jalabhar
Xho, the Redwyne twins, Osney Kettleblack, Hugh Clifton, and the Knight of Flowers.
That displeased her. She dare not besmirch the name of the hero of Dragonstone. Besides, no
one who knew Ser Loras would ever believe it. The Redwynes could not be a part of it either.
Without the Arbor and its fleet, the realm could never hope to rid itself of this Euron Crows Eye
and his accursed ironmen. All you are doing is spitting up the names of men you saw about her
chambers. We want the truth!
The truth. Wat looked at her with the one blue eye that Qyburn had left him. Blood bubbled
through the holes where his front teeth had been. I might have... misremembered.
Horas and Hobber had no part of this, did they?
No, he admitted. Not them.

As for Ser Loras, I am certain Margaery took pains to hide what she was doing from her
brother.
She did. I remember now. Once I had to hide under the bed when Ser Loras came to see her.
He must never know, she said.
I prefer this song to the other. Leave the great lords out of it, that was for the best. The others,
though... Ser Tallad had been a hedge knight, Jalabhar Xho was an exile and a beggar, Clifton
was the only one of the little queens guardsman. And Osney is the plum that makes the pudding.
I know you feel better for having told the truth. You will want to remember that when Margaery
comes to trial. If you were to start lying again...
I wont. Ill tell it true. And after...
... you will be allowed to take the black. You have my word on that. Cersei turned to Qyburn.
See that his wounds are cleaned and dressed, and give him milk of the poppy for the pain.
Your Grace is good. Qyburn dropped the bloody razor into a pail of vinegar. Margaery may
wonder where her bard has gone.
Singers come and go, they are infamous for it.
The climb up the dark stone steps from the black cells left Cersei feeling breathless. I must rest.
Getting to the truth was wearisome work, and she dreaded what must follow. I must be strong.
What I must do I do for Tommen and the realm. It was a pity that Maggy the Frog was dead. Piss
on your prophecy, old woman. The little queen may be younger than I, but she has never been
more beautiful, and soon she will be dead.
Lady Merryweather was waiting in her bedchamber. It was the black of night, closer to dawn
than to dusk. Jocelyn and Dorcas were both asleep, but not Taena. Was it terrible? she asked.
You cannot know. I need to sleep, but fear to dream.
Taena stroked her hair. It was all for Tommen.
It was. I know it was. Cersei shuddered. My throat is raw. Be a sweet and pour me some
wine.
If it please you. That is all that I desire.
Liar. She knew what Taena desired. So be it. If the woman was besotted with her, that would
help ensure that she and her husband remained loyal. In a world so full of treachery, that was
worth a few kisses. She is no worse than most men. At least there is no danger of her ever getting
me with child.
The wine helped, but not enough. I feel soiled, the queen complained as she stood beside her
window, cup in hand.
A bath will set you right, my sweet. Lady Merryweather woke Dorcas and Jocelyn and sent
them for hot water. As the tub was filled, she helped the queen disrobe, undoing her laces with
deft fingers and easing the gown off her shoulders. Then she slipped out of her own dress and let
it puddle on the floor.
The two of them shared the bath together, with Cersei lying back in Taenas arms. Tommen
must be spared the worst of this, she told the Myrish woman. Margaery still takes him to the

sept every day, so they can ask the gods to heal her brother. Ser Loras still clung to life,
annoyingly. He is fond of her cousins as well. It will go hard on him, to lose them all.
All three may not be guilty, suggested Lady Merryweather. Why, it might well be that one
of them took no part. If she was shamed and sickened by the things she saw...
... she might be persuaded to bear witness against the others. Yes, very good, but which one is
the innocent?
Alla.
The shy one?
So she seems, but there is more of sly than shy in her. Leave her to me, my sweet.
Gladly. Alone, the Blue Bards confession would never suffice. Singers lied for their living,
after all. Alla Tyrell would be of great help, if Taena could deliver her. Ser Osney shall confess
as well. The others must be made to understand that only through confession can they earn the
kings forgiveness, and the Wall. Jalabhar Xho would find the truth attractive. About the rest
she was less certain, but Qyburn was persuasive...
Dawn was breaking over Kings Landing when they climbed from the tub. The queens skin
was white and wrinkled from her long immersion. Stay with me, she told Taena. I do not
want to sleep alone. She even said a prayer before she crawled beneath her coverlet, beseeching
the Mother for sweet dreams.
It proved a waste of breath; as ever, the gods were deaf. Cersei dreamt that she was down in the
black cells once again, only this time it was her chained to the wall in place of the singer. She
was naked, and blood dripped from the tips of her breasts where the Imp had torn off her nipples
with his teeth. Please, she begged, please, not my children, do not harm my children. Tyrion
only leered at her. He was naked too, covered with coarse hair that made him look more like a
monkey than a man. You shall see them crowned, he said, and you shall see them die. Then
he took her bleeding breast into his mouth and began to suck, and pain sawed through her like a
hot knife.
She woke shuddering in Taenas arms. A bad dream, she said weakly. Did I scream? Im
sorry.
Dreams turn to dust in light of day. Was it the dwarf again? Why does he frighten you so, this
silly little man?
He is going to kill me. It was foreseen when I was ten. I wanted to know who I would marry,
but she said...
She?
The maegi. The words came tumbling out of her. She could still hear Melara Hetherspoon
insisting that if they never spoke about the prophecies, they would not come true. She was not so
silent in the well, though. She screamed and shouted. Tyrion is the valonqar, she said. Do you
use that word in Myr? Its High Valyrian, it means little brother. She had asked Septa Saranella
about the word, after Melara drowned.
Taena took her hand and stroked it. This was a hateful woman, old and sick and ugly. You
were young and beautiful, full of life and pride. She lived in Lannisport, you said, so she would

have known of the dwarf and how he killed your lady mother. This creature dared not strike you,
because of who you were, so she sought to wound you with her vipers tongue.
Could it be? Cersei wanted to believe it. Melara died, though, just as she foretold. I never wed
Prince Rhaegar. And Joffrey... the dwarf killed my son before my eyes.
One son, said Lady Merryweather, but you have another, sweet and strong, and no harm will
ever come to him.
Never, whilst I live. Saying it helped her believe that it was so. Dreams turn to dust in light of
day, yes. Outside the morning sun was shining through a haze of cloud. Cersei slipped out from
under the blankets. I will break my fast with the king this morning. I want to see my son. All I
do, I do for him.
Tommen helped restore her to herself. He had never been more precious to her than he was that
morning, chattering about his kittens as he dribbled honey onto a chunk of hot black bread fresh
from the ovens. Ser Pounce caught a mouse, he told her, but Lady Whiskers stole it from
him.
I was never so sweet and innocent, Cersei thought. How can he ever hope to rule in this cruel
realm? The mother in her wanted only to protect him; the queen in her knew he must grow
harder, or the Iron Throne was certain to devour him. Ser Pounce must learn to defend his
rights, she told him. In this world the weak are always the victims of the strong.
The king considered that, licking honey off his fingers. When Ser Loras comes back Im going
to learn to fight with lance and sword and morningstar, the same way he does.
You will learn to fight, the queen promised, but not from Ser Loras. He will not be coming
back, Tommen.
Margaery says he will. We pray for him. We ask for the Mothers mercy, and for the Warrior
to give him strength. Elinor says that this is Ser Lorass hardest battle.
She smoothed his hair back, the soft golden curls that reminded her so much of Joff. Will you
be spending the afternoon with your wife and her cousins?
Not today. She has to fast and purify herself, she said.
Fast and purify... oh, for Maidens Day. It had been years since Cersei had been required to
observe that particular holy day. Thrice wed, yet she still would have us believe she is a maid.
Demure in white, the little queen would lead her hens to Baelors Sept to light tall white candles
at the Maidens feet and hang parchment garlands about her holy neck. A few of her hens, at
least. On Maidens Day widows, mothers, and whores alike were barred from the septs, along
with men, lest they profane the sacred songs of innocence. Only virgin maids could...
Mother? Did I say something wrong?
Cersei kissed her sons brow. You said something very wise, sweetling. Now run along and
play with your kittens.
Afterward she summoned Ser Osney Kettleblack to her solar. He came in sweaty from the yard
and swaggering, and as he took a knee he undressed her with his eyes, the way he always did.
Rise, ser, and sit here next to me. You did me a valiant service once, but now I have a harder
task for you.

Aye, and I have something hard for you.
That must wait. She traced his scars lightly with the tips of her fingers. Do you recall the
whore who gave these to you? Ill give her to you when you come back from the Wall. Would
you like that?
Its you I want.
That was the right answer. First you must confess your treason. A mans sins can poison his
soul if left to fester. I know it must be hard for you to live with what youve done. It is past time
that you rid yourself of your shame.
Shame? Osney sounded baffled. I told Osmund, Margaery just teases. She never lets me do
any more than...
It is chivalrous of you to protect her, Cersei broke in, but you are too good a knight to go on
living with your crime. No, you must take yourself to the Great Sept of Baelor this very night
and speak with the High Septon. When a mans sins are so black, only His High Holiness
himself can save him from hells torments. Tell him how you bedded Margaery and her cousins.
Osney blinked. What, the cousins too?
Megga and Elinor, she decided, never Alla. That little detail would make the whole story
more plausible. Alla would sit weeping, and plead with the others to stop their sinning.
Just Megga and Elinor? Or Margaery too?
Margaery, most certainly. She was the one behind it all.
She told him all she had in mind. As Osney listened, apprehension slowly spread across his
face. When she finished he said, After you cut her head off, I want to take that kiss she never
gave me.
You may take all the kisses you like.
And then the Wall?
For just a little while. Tommen is a forgiving king.
Osney scratched at his scarred cheek. Usually if I lie about some woman, its me saying how I
never fucked them and them saying how I did. This... I never lied to no High Septon before. I
think you go to some hell for that. One o the bad ones.
The queen was taken aback. The last thing she expected was piety from a Kettleblack. Are you
refusing to obey me?
No. Osney touched her golden hair. The thing is, the best lies have some truth in em... to
give em flavor, as it were. And you want me to go tell how I fucked a queen...
She almost slapped his face. Almost. But she had gone too far, and too much was at stake. All I
do, I do for Tommen. She turned her head and caught Ser Osneys hand with her own, kissing
his fingers. They were rough and hard, callused from the sword. Robert had hands like that, she
thought.
Cersei wrapped her arms about his neck. I would not want it said I made a liar of you, she
whispered in a husky voice. Give me an hour, and meet me in my bedchamber.
We waited long enough. He thrust his fingers inside the bodice of her gown and yanked, and
the silk parted with a ripping sound so loud that Cersei was afraid that half of the Red Keep must

have heard it. Take off the rest before I tear that too, he said. You can keep the crown on. I
like you in the crown.

THE PRINCESS IN THE TOWER
Hers was a gentle prison.
Arianne took solace from that. Why would her father go to such great pains to provide for her
comfort in captivity if he had marked her for a traitors death? He cannot mean to kill me, she
told herself a hundred times. He does not have it in him to be so cruel. I am his blood and seed,
his heir, his only daughter. If need be, she would throw herself beneath the wheels of his chair,
admit her fault, and beg him for his pardon. And she would weep. When he saw tears rolling
down her face, he would forgive her.
She was less certain whether she would forgive herself.
Areo, she had pleaded with her captor during the long dry ride from the Greenblood back to
Sunspear, I never wanted the girl to come to harm. You must believe me.
Hotah made no reply, except to grunt. Arianne could feel his anger. Darkstar had escaped him,
the most dangerous of all her little group of plotters. He had outraced all his pursuers and
vanished into the deep desert, with blood upon his blade.
You know me, captain, Arianne had said, as the leagues rolled past. You have known me
since I was little. You always kept me safe, as you kept my lady mother safe when you came
with her from Great Norvos to be her shield in a strange land. I need you now. I need your help. I
never meant
What you meant does not matter, little princess, Areo Hotah said. Only what you did. His
countenance was stony. I am sorry. It is for my prince to command, for Hotah to obey.
Arianne expected to be brought before her fathers high seat beneath the dome of leaded glass
in the Tower of the Sun. Instead, Hotah delivered her to the Spear Tower, and the custody of her
fathers seneschal Ricasso and Ser Manfrey Martell, the castellan. Princess, Ricasso said, you
will forgive an old blind man if he does not make the climb with you. These legs are not equal to
so many steps. A chamber has been prepared for you. Ser Manfrey shall escort you there, to
await the princes pleasure.
The princes displeasure, you mean. Will my friends be confined here as well? Arianne had
been parted from Garin, Drey, and the others after capture, and Hotah had refused to say what
would be done with them. That is for the prince to decide, was all the captain had to say upon
the subject. Ser Manfrey proved a bit more forthcoming. They were taken to the Planky Town
and will be conveyed by ship to Ghaston Grey, until such time as Prince Doran decides their
fate.
Ghaston Grey was a crumbling old castle perched on a rock in the Sea of Dorne, a drear and
dreadful prison where the vilest of criminals were sent to rot and die. Does my father mean to
kill them? Arianne could not believe it. All they did they did for love for me. If my father must
have blood, it should be mine.
As you say, princess.
I want to speak with him.

He thought you might. Ser Manfrey took her arm and marched her up the steps, up and up
until her breath grew short. The Spear Tower stood a hundred and a half feet high, and her cell
was nearly at the top. Arianne eyed every door they passed, wondering if one of the Sand Snakes
might be locked within.
When her own door had been closed and barred, Arianne explored her new home. Her cell was
large and airy, and did not lack for comforts. There were Myrish carpets on the floor, red wine to
drink, books to read. In one corner stood an ornate cyvasse table with pieces carved of ivory and
onyx, though she had no one to play with even if she had been so inclined. She had a featherbed
to sleep in, and a privy with a marble seat, sweetened by a basketful of herbs. This high up, the
views were splendid. One window opened to the east, so she could watch the sun rise above the
sea. The other allowed her to look down upon the Tower of the Sun, and the Winding Walls and
Threefold Gate beyond.
The exploration took less time than it would have taken her to lace a pair of sandals, but at least
it served to keep the tears at bay for a time. Arianne found a basin and a flagon of cool water and
washed her hands and face, but no amount of scrubbing could cleanse her of her grief. Arys, she
thought, my white knight. Tears filled her eyes, and suddenly she was weeping, her whole body
wracked by sobs. She remembered how Hotahs heavy axe had cleaved through his flesh and
bone, the way his head had gone spinning through the air. Why did you do it? Why throw your
life away? I never told you to, I never wanted that, I only wanted... I wanted... I wanted...
That night she cried herself to sleep... for the first time, if not the last. Even in her dreams she
found no peace. She dreamt of Arys Oakheart caressing her, smiling at her, telling her that he
loved her... but all the while the quarrels were in him and his wounds were weeping, turning his
whites to red. Part of her knew it was a nightmare, even as she dreamt it. Come morning all of
this will vanish, the princess told herself, but when morning came, she was still in her cell, Ser
Arys was still dead, and Myrcella... I never wanted that, never. I meant the girl no harm. All I
wanted was for her to be a queen. If we had not been betrayed...
Someone told, Hotah had said. The memory still made her angry. Arianne clung to that,
feeding the flame within her heart. Anger was better than tears, better than grief, better than guilt.
Someone told, someone she had trusted. Arys Oakheart had died because of that, slain by the
traitors whisper as much as by the captains axe. The blood that had streamed down Myrcellas
face, that was the betrayers work as well. Someone told, someone she had loved. That was the
cruelest cut of all.
She found a cedar chest full of her clothes at the foot of her bed, so she stripped out of the
travel-stained garb she had slept in and donned the most revealing garments she could find,
wisps of silk that covered everything and hid nothing. Prince Doran might treat her like a child,
but she refused to dress like one. She knew such garb would discomfit her father when he came
to chastise her for making off with Myrcella. She counted on it. If I must crawl and weep, let him
be uncomfortable as well.
She expected him that day, but when the door finally opened it proved to be only the servants
with her midday meal. When might I see my father? she asked, but none of them would

answer. The kid had been roasted with lemon and honey. With it were grape leaves stuffed with
a mlange of raisins, onions, mushrooms, and fiery dragon peppers. I am not hungry, Arianne
said. Her friends would be eating ships biscuits and salt beef on their way to Ghaston Grey.
Take this away and bring me Prince Doran. But they left the food, and her father did not come.
After a while, hunger weakened her resolve, so she sat and ate.
Once the food was gone, there was nothing else for Arianne to do. She paced around her tower,
twice and thrice and three times thrice. She sat beside the cyvasse table and idly moved an
elephant. She curled up in the window seat and tried to read a book, until the words became a
blur and she realized that she was crying again. Arys, my sweet, my white knight, why did you
do it? You should have yielded. I tried to tell you, but the words caught in my mouth. You
gallant fool, I never meant for you to die, or for Myrcella... oh, gods be good, that little girl...
Finally, she crawled back onto the featherbed. The world had grown dark, and there was little
she could do but sleep. Someone told, she thought. Someone told. Garin, Drey, and Spotted
Sylva were friends of her girlhood, as dear to her as her cousin Tyene. She could not believe they
would inform on her... but that left only Darkstar, and if he was the betrayer, why had he turned
his sword on poor Myrcella? He wanted to kill her instead of crowning her, he said as much at
Shandystone. He said that was how Id get the war I wanted. But it made no sense for Dayne to
be the traitor. If Ser Gerold had been the worm in the apple, why would he have turned his sword
upon Myrcella?
Someone told. Could it have been Ser Arys? Had the white knights guilt won out over his lust?
Had he loved Myrcella more than her and betrayed his new princess to atone for his betrayal of
the old? Was he so ashamed of what hed done that he threw his life away at the Greenblood
rather than live to face dishonor?
Someone told. When her father came to see her, she would learn which one. Prince Doran did
not come the next day, though. Nor the day after. The princess was left alone to pace, and weep,
and nurse her wounds. During the daylight hours she would try to read, but the books that they
had given her were deadly dull: ponderous old histories and geographies, annotated maps, a dry-
as-dust study of the laws of Dorne, The Seven-Pointed Star and Lives of the High Septons, a
huge tome about dragons that somehow made them about as interesting as newts. Arianne would
have given much and more for a copy of Ten Thousand Ships or The Loves of Queen Nymeria,
anything to occupy her thoughts and let her escape her tower for an hour or two, but such
amusements were denied her.
From her window seat, she had only to glance out to see the great dome of gold and colored
glass below her, where her father sat in state. He will summon me soon, she told herself.
No visitors were permitted her beyond the servants; Bors with his stubbly jaw, tall Timoth
dripping dignity, the sisters Morra and Mellei, pretty little Cedra, old Belandra who had been her
mothers bedmaid. They brought her meals, changed her bed, and emptied the chamber pot
beneath her privy, but none would speak with her. When she required more wine, Timoth would
fetch it. If she desired some favorite food, figs or olives or peppers stuffed with cheese, she need
only tell Belandra, and it would appear. Morra and Mellei took away her dirty clothes and

returned them clean and fresh. Every second day a bath was brought for her, and shy little Cedra
would soap her back and help her brush her hair.
Yet none of them had a word for her, nor would they deign to tell her what was happening in
the world outside her sandstone cage. Has Darkstar been captured? she asked Bors one day.
Are they still hunting for him? The man only turned his back on her and walked away. Have
you gone deaf? Arianne snapped at him. Come back here and answer me. I command it. Her
only reply was the sound of a door closing.
Timoth, she tried, another day, what has become of Princess Myrcella? I never meant for
harm to come to her. The last she had seen of the other princess had been on their ride back to
Sunspear. Too weak to sit a horse, Myrcella had traveled in a litter, her head bound up in silken
bandages where Darkstar slashed at her, her green eyes bright with fever. Tell me that she has
not died, I beg you. What harm could come of my knowing that? Tell me how she fares. Timoth
would not.
Belandra, Arianne said, a few days later, if you ever loved my lady mother, take pity on her
poor daughter and tell me when my father means to come and see me. Please. Please. But
Belandra had lost her tongue as well.
Is this my fathers notion of torment? Not hot irons or the rack, but simple silence? That was so
very like Doran Martell that Arianne had to laugh. He thinks he is being subtle when he is only
being feeble. She resolved to enjoy the quiet, to use the time to heal and fortify herself for what
must come.
It was no good dwelling endlessly on Ser Arys, she knew. Instead, she made herself think about
the Sand Snakes, Tyene especially. Arianne loved all her bastard cousins, from prickly, hot-
tempered Obara to little Loreza, the youngest, only six years old. Tyene had always been the one
she loved the most, though; the sweet sister that she never had. The princess had never been
close to her brothers; Quentyn was off at Yronwood, and Trystane was too young. No, it had
always been her and Tyene, with Garin and Drey and Spotted Sylva. Nym would sometimes join
them in their sport, and Sarella was forever pushing in where she didnt belong, but for the most
part they had been a company of five. They splashed in the pools and fountains of the Water
Gardens, and rode into battle perched on one anothers naked backs. She and Tyene had learned
to read together, learned to ride together, learned to dance together. When they were ten Arianne
had stolen a flagon of wine, and the two of them had gotten drunk together. They shared meals
and beds and jewelry. They would have shared their first man as well, but Drey got too excited
and spurted all over Tyenes fingers the moment she drew him from his breeches. Her hands are
dangerous. The memory made her smile.
The more she thought about her cousins, the more the princess missed them. For all I know,
they might be right below me. That night Arianne tried pounding on the floor with the heel of her
sandal. When no one answered, she leaned out a window and peered down. She could see other
windows below, smaller than her own, some no more than arrow loops. Tyene! she called.
Tyene, are you there? Obara, Nym? Can you hear me? Ellaria? Anyone? TYENE? The
princess spent half the night hanging out the window, calling till her throat was raw, but no

answering shouts came back to her. That frightened her more than she could say. If the Sand
Snakes were imprisoned in the Spear Tower, they surely would have heard her shouting. Why
didnt they answer? If Father has done them harm, I will never forgive him, never, she told
herself.
By the time a fortnight had passed, her patience had worn paper-thin. I will speak with my
father now, she told Bors, in her most commanding voice. You will take me to him. He did
not take her to him. I am ready to see the prince, she told Timoth, but he turned away as if he
had not heard. The next morning, Arianne was waiting beside the door when it opened. She
bolted past Belandra, sending a platter of spiced eggs to crash against the wall, but the guards
caught her before shed gone three yards. She knew them too, but they were deaf to her
entreaties. They dragged her back to her cell, kicking and squirming.
Arianne decided that she must needs be more subtle. Cedra was her best hope; the girl was
young, naive, and gullible. Garin had boasted of bedding her once, the princess recalled. The
next time she bathed, as Cedra soaped her shoulders, she began to talk of everything and nothing.
I know you have been commanded not to speak to me, she said, but no one told me not to
speak to you. She spoke about the heat of the day, and what shed had last night for supper, and
how slow and stiff poor Belandra was becoming. Prince Oberyn had armed each of his daughters
so they need never be defenseless, but Arianne Martell had no weapon but her guile. And so she
smiled and charmed, and asked nothing in return of Cedra, neither word nor nod.
The next day at supper, she nattered at the girl again as she was serving. This time she contrived
to mention Garin. Cedra glanced up shyly at his name and almost spilled the wine that she was
pouring. So it is that way, is it? thought Arianne.
During her next bath, she spoke of her imprisoned friends, especially Garin. Hes the one I
fear for most, she confided to the serving girl. The orphans are free spirits, they live to wander.
Garin needs sunshine and fresh air. If they lock him away in some dank stone cell, how will he
survive? He will not last a year at Ghaston Grey. Cedra did not reply, but her face was pale
when Arianne rose from the water, and she was squeezing the sponge so tightly that soap was
dripping on the Myrish carpet.
Even so, it was four more days and two more baths before the girl was hers. Please, Cedra
finally whispered, after Arianne had painted a vivid picture of Garin throwing himself from the
window of his cell, to taste freedom one last time before he died. You have to help him. Please
dont let him die.
I can do little and less so long as I am locked up here, she whispered back. My father will
not see me. You are the only one who can save Garin. Do you love him?
Yes, Cedra whispered, blushing. But how can I help?
You can smuggle out a letter for me, said the princess. Will do you that? Will you take the
risk... for Garin?
Cedras eyes got big. She nodded.
I have a raven, Arianne thought, triumphantly, but who to send her to? The only one of her
conspirators to escape her fathers net was Darkstar. By now Ser Gerold might well have been

taken, however; if not, he would surely have fled Dorne. Her next thought was of Garins mother
and the orphans of the Greenblood. No, not them. It must be someone with real power, someone
who had no part of our plot yet might have reason to be sympathetic to us. She considered
appealing to her own mother, but Lady Mellario was far away in Norvos. Besides, Prince Doran
had not listened to his lady wife for many years. Not her either. I need a lord, one great enough
to cow my father into releasing me.
The most powerful of the Dornish lords was Anders Yronwood, the Bloodroyal, Lord of
Yronwood and Warden of the Stone Way, but Arianne knew better than to look for help from the
man who had fostered her brother Quentyn. No. Dreys brother Ser Deziel Dalt had once aspired
to marry her, but he was much too dutiful to go against his prince. Besides, whilst the Knight of
Lemonwood might intimidate a petty lord, he did not have the strength to sway the Prince of
Dorne. No. The same was true of Spotted Sylvas father. No. Arianne finally decided that she
had but two real hopes: Harmen Uller, Lord of Hellholt, and Franklyn Fowler, Lord of Skyreach
and Warden of the Princes Pass.
Half of the Ullers are half-mad, the saying went, and the other half are worse. Ellaria Sand was
Lord Harmens natural daughter. She and her little ones had been locked away with the rest of
the Sand Snakes. That would have made Lord Harmen wroth, and the Ullers were dangerous
when wroth. Too dangerous, perhaps. The princess did not want to put any more lives in danger.
Lord Fowler might be a safer choice. The Old Hawk, he was called. He had never gotten on with
Anders Yronwood; there was bad blood between their Houses going back a thousand years, from
when the Fowlers had chosen Martell over Yronwood during Nymerias War. The Fowler twins
were famous friends of Lady Nym as well, but how much weight would that carry with the Old
Hawk?
For days Arianne wavered as she composed her secret letter. Give the man who brings this to
you a hundred silver stags, she began. That should ensure that the message was delivered. She
wrote where she was, and pleaded for rescue. Whoever shall deliver me from this cell, he shall
not be forgotten when I wed. That should bring the heroes running. Unless Prince Doran had
attainted her, she remained the lawful heir to Sunspear; the man who married her would one day
rule Dorne by her side. Arianne could only pray that her rescuer would prove younger than the
greybeards her father had offered her over the years. I want a consort with teeth, she had told
him when she refused the last.
She dare not ask for parchment for fear of rousing the suspicions of her captors, so she wrote
the letter on the bottom of a page torn from The Seven-Pointed Star, and pressed it into Cedras
hand on her next bath day. Theres a place beside the Threefold Gate where the caravans take
on supplies before crossing the deep sand, Arianne told her. Find some traveler headed for the
Princes Pass, and promise him a hundred silver stags if he will put this in Lord Fowlers hand.
I will. Cedra hid the message in her bodice. Ill find someone before the sun goes down,
princess.
Good, she said. Tell me how it went on the morrow.

The girl did not return upon the morrow, however. Nor on the day that followed. When it was
time for Arianne to bathe, it was Morra and Mellei who filled her tub, and stayed to wash her
back and brush her hair. Has Cedra taken ill? the princess asked them, but neither would reply.
She has been caught was all that she could think. What else could it be? That night she hardly
slept, for fear of what might come next.
When Timoth brought her breakfast the next morning, Arianne asked to see Ricasso rather than
her father. Plainly she could not compel Prince Doran to attend her, but surely a mere seneschal
would not ignore a summons from the rightful heir to Sunspear.
He did, though. Did you tell Ricasso what I said? she demanded the next time she saw
Timoth. Did you tell him I had need of him? When the man refused to answer her, Arianne
seized a flagon of red wine and upended it over his head. The serving man retreated dripping, his
face a mask of wounded dignity. My father means to leave me here to rot, the princess decided.
Or else he is making plans to marry me off to some disgusting old fool and intends to keep me
locked away until the bedding.
Arianne Martell had grown up expecting that one day she would wed some great lord of her
fathers choosing. That was what princesses were for, she had been taught... though, admittedly,
her uncle Oberyn had taken a different view of matters. If you would wed, wed, the Red Viper
had told his own daughters. If not, take your pleasure where you find it. Theres little enough of
it in this world. Choose well, though. If you saddle yourself with a fool or a brute, dont look to
me to rid you of him. I gave you the tools to do that for yourself.
The freedom that Prince Oberyn allowed his bastard daughters had never been shared by Prince
Dorans lawful heir. Arianne must wed; she had accepted that. Drey had wanted her, she knew;
so had his brother Deziel, the Knight of Lemonwood. Daemon Sand had gone so far as to ask for
her hand. Daemon was bastard-born, however, and Prince Doran did not mean for her to wed a
Dornishman.
Arianne had accepted that as well. One year King Roberts brother came to visit and she did her
best to seduce him, but she was half a girl and Lord Renly seemed more bemused than inflamed
by her overtures. Later, when Hoster Tully asked her to come to Riverrun and meet his heir, she
lit candles to the Maid in thanks, but Prince Doran had declined the invitation. The princess
might even have considered Willas Tyrell, crippled leg and all, but her father refused to send her
to Highgarden to meet him. She tried to go despite him, with Tyenes help... but Prince Oberyn
caught them at Vaith and brought them back. That same year, Prince Doran tried to betroth her to
Ben Beesbury, a minor lordling who was eighty if he was a day, and as blind as he was toothless.
Beesbury died a few years later. That gave her some small comfort in her present pass; she could
not be forced to marry him if he was dead. And the Lord of the Crossing had wed again, so she
was safe from him as well. Elden Estermont is still alive and unwed, though. Lord Rosby and
Lord Grandison as well. Grandison was called the Greybeard, but by the time shed met him his
beard had gone snow white. At the welcoming feast, he had gone to sleep between the fish
course and the meat. Drey called that apt, since his sigil was a sleeping lion. Garin challenged
her to see if she could tie a knot in his beard without waking him, but Arianne refrained.

Grandison had seemed a pleasant fellow, less querulous than Estermont and more robust than
Rosby. She would never marry him, however. Not even if Hotah stands behind me with his axe.
No one came to marry her the next day, nor the day after. Nor did Cedra return. Arianne tried to
win Morra and Mellei the same way, but it was no good. If she had been able to get either one
alone she might have some hope, but together the sisters were a wall. By that time, the princess
would have welcomed a touch of a hot iron, or an evening on the rack. The loneliness was like to
drive her mad. I deserve a headsmans axe for what I did, but he will not even give me that. He
would sooner shut me away and forget I ever lived. She wondered if Maester Caleotte was
drawing a proclamation to name her brother Quentyn heir to Dorne.
Days came and went, one after the other, so many that Arianne lost count of how long she had
been imprisoned. She found herself spending more and more time abed, until she reached the
point where she did not rise at all except to use her privy. The meals the servants brought grew
cold, untouched. Arianne slept and woke and slept again, and still felt too weary to rise. She
prayed to the Mother for mercy and to the Warrior for courage, then slept some more. Fresh
meals replaced the old ones, but she did not eat them either. Once, when she felt especially
strong, she carried all the food to the window and flung it out into the yard, so it would not tempt
her. The effort exhausted her, so afterward she crawled back into bed and slept for half a day.
Then came a day when a rough hand woke her, shaking her by the shoulder. Little princess,
said a voice shed known from childhood. Up and dress. The prince has called for you. Areo
Hotah stood over her, her old friend and protector. He was talking to her. Arianne smiled
sleepily. It was good to see that seamed, scarred face, and hear his gruff, deep voice and thick
Norvoshi accent. What did you do with Cedra?
The prince sent her to the Water Gardens, Hotah said. He will tell you. First you must wash,
and eat.
She must look a wretched creature. Arianne crawled from the bed, weak as a kitten. Have
Morra and Mellei prepare a bath, she told him, and tell Timoth to bring me up some food.
Nothing heavy. Some cold broth and a bit of bread and fruit.
Aye, said Hotah. Never had she heard a sweeter sound.
The captain waited without whilst the princess bathed and brushed her hair and ate sparingly of
the cheese and fruit theyd brought her. She drank a little wine to settle her stomach. I am
frightened, she realized, for the first time in my life, I am frightened of my father. That made her
laugh until the wine came out her nose. When it was time to dress, she chose a simple gown of
ivory linen, with vines and purple grapes embroidered around the sleeves and bodice. She wore
no jewels. I must be chaste and humble and contrite. I must throw myself at his feet and beg
forgiveness, or I may never hear another human voice again.
By the time she was ready, dusk had fallen. Arianne had thought that Hotah would escort her to
the Tower of the Sun to hear her fathers judgment. Instead he delivered her to the princes solar,
where they found Doran Martell seated behind a cyvasse table, his gouty legs supported by a
cushioned footstool. He was toying with an onyx elephant, turning it in his reddened, swollen
hands. The prince looked worse than she had ever seen him. His face was pale and puffy, his

joints so inflamed that it hurt her just to look at them. Seeing him this way made Ariannes heart
go out to him... yet somehow she could not bring herself to kneel and beg, as she had planned.
Father, she said instead.
When he raised his head to look at her, his dark eyes were clouded with pain. Is that the gout?
Arianne wondered. Or is it me? A strange and subtle folk, the Volantenes, he muttered, as he
put the elephant aside. I saw Volantis once, on my way to Norvos, where I first met Mellario.
The bells were ringing, and the bears danced down the steps. Areo will recall the day.
I remember, echoed Areo Hotah in his deep voice. The bears danced and the bells rang, and
the prince wore red and gold and orange. My lady asked me who it was who shone so bright.
Prince Doran smiled wanly. Leave us, captain.
Hotah stamped the butt of his longaxe on the floor, turned on his heel, and took his leave.
I told them to place a cyvasse table in your chambers, her father said when the two of them
were alone.
Who was I supposed to play with? Why is he talking about a game? Has the gout robbed him
of his wits?
Yourself. Sometimes it is best to study a game before you attempt to play it. How well do you
know the game, Arianne?
Well enough to play.
But not to win. My brother loved the fight for its own sake, but I only play such games as I can
win. Cyvasse is not for me. He studied her face for a long moment before he said, Why? Tell
me that, Arianne. Tell me why.
For the honor of our House. Her fathers voice made her angry. He sounded so sad, so
exhausted, so weak. You are a prince! she wanted to shout. You should be raging! Your
meekness shames all Dorne, Father. Your brother went to Kings Landing in your place, and they
killed him!
Do you think I do not know that? Oberyn is with me every time I close my eyes.
Telling you to open them, no doubt. She seated herself across the cyvasse table from her
father.
I did not give you leave to sit.
Then call Hotah back and whip me for my insolence. You are the Prince of Dorne. You can do
that. She touched one of the cyvasse pieces, the heavy horse. Have you caught Ser Gerold?
He shook his head. Would that we had. You were a fool to make him part of this. Darkstar is
the most dangerous man in Dorne. You and he have done us all great harm.
Arianne was almost afraid to ask. Myrcella. Is she... ?
... dead? No, though Darkstar did his best. All eyes were on your white knight so no one seems
quite certain just what happened, but it would appear that her horse shied away from his at the
last instant, else he would have taken off the top of the girls skull. As it is, the slash opened her
cheek down to the bone and sliced off her right ear. Maester Caleotte was able to save her life,
but no poultice nor potion will ever restore her face. She was my ward, Arianne. Betrothed to
your own brother and under my protection. You have dishonored all of us.

I never meant her harm, Arianne insisted. If Hotah had not interfered...
... you would have crowned Myrcella queen, to raise a rebellion against her brother. Instead of
an ear, she would have lost her life.
Only if we lost.
If? The word is when. Dorne is the least populous of the Seven Kingdoms. It pleased the
Young Dragon to make all our armies larger when he wrote that book of his, so as to make his
conquest that much more glorious, and it has pleased us to water the seed he planted and let our
foes think us more powerful than we are, but a princess ought to know the truth. Valor is a poor
substitute for numbers. Dorne cannot hope to win a war against the Iron Throne, not alone. And
yet that may well be what you have given us. Are you proud? The prince did not allow her time
to answer. What am I to do with you, Arianne?
Forgive me, part of her wanted to say, but his words had cut her too deeply. Why, do what you
always do. Do nothing.
You make it difficult for a man to swallow his anger.
Best stop swallowing, youre like to choke on it. The prince did not answer. Tell me how
you knew my plans.
I am the Prince of Dorne. Men seek my favor.
Someone told. You knew, and yet you still allowed us to make off with Myrcella. Why?
That was my mistake, and it has proved a grievous one. You are my daughter, Arianne. The
little girl who used to run to me when she skinned her knee. I found it hard to believe that you
would conspire against me. I had to learn the truth.
Now you have. I want to know who informed on me.
I would as well, in your place.
Will you tell me?
I can think of no reason why I should.
You think I cannot discover the truth on my own?
You are welcome to try. Until such time you must mistrust them all... and a little mistrust is a
good thing in a princess. Prince Doran sighed. You disappoint me, Arianne.
Said the crow to the raven. You have been disappointing me for years, Father. She had not
meant to be so blunt with him, but the words came spilling out. There, now I have said it.
I know. I am too meek and weak and cautious, too lenient to our enemies. Just now, though,
you are in need of some of that leniency, it seems to me. You ought to be pleading for my
forgiveness rather than seeking to provoke me further.
I ask leniency only for my friends.
How noble of you.
What they did they did for love for me. They do not deserve to die on Ghaston Grey.
As it happens, I agree. Aside from Darkstar, your fellow plotters were no more than foolish
children. Still, this was no harmless game of cyvasse. You and your friends were playing at
treason. I might have had their heads off.

You might have, but you didnt. Dayne, Dalt, Santagar... no, you would never dare make
enemies of such Houses.
I dare more than you dream... but leave that for the nonce. Ser Andrey has been sent to Norvos
to serve your lady mother for three years. Garin will spend his next two years in Tyrosh. From
his kin amongst the orphans, I took coin and hostages. Lady Sylva received no punishment from
me, but she was of an age to marry. Her father has shipped her to Greenstone to wed Lord
Estermont. As for Arys Oakheart, he chose his own fate and met it bravely. A knight of the
Kingsguard... what did you do to him?
I fucked him, Father. You did command me to entertain our noble visitors, as I recall.
His face grew flushed. Was that all that was required?
I told him that once Myrcella was the queen she would give us leave to marry. He wanted me
for his wife.
You did everything you could to stop him from dishonoring his vows, I am certain, her father
said.
It was her turn to flush. Her seduction of Ser Arys had required half a year. Though he claimed
to have known other women before taking the white, she would never have known that from the
way he acted. His caresses had been clumsy, his kisses nervous, and the first time they were abed
together he spent his seed on her thigh as she was guiding him inside her with her hand. Worse,
he had been consumed by shame. If she only had a dragon for every time he had whispered, We
should not be doing this, she would be richer than the Lannisters. Did he charge at Areo Hotah
in hopes of saving me? Arianne wondered. Or did he do it to escape me, to wash out his dishonor
with his lifes blood? He did love me, she heard herself say. He died for me.
If so, he may well be but the first of many. You and your cousins wanted war. You may get
your wish. Another Kingsguard knight creeps toward Sunspear even as we speak. Ser Balon
Swann is bringing me the Mountains head. My bannermen have been delaying him, to purchase
me some time. The Wyls kept him hunting and hawking for eight days on the Boneway, and
Lord Yronwood feasted him for a fortnight when he emerged from the mountains. At present he
is at the Tor, where Lady Jordayne has arranged games in his honor. When he reaches Ghost Hill
he will find Lady Toland intent on outdoing her. Soon or late, however, Ser Balon must arrive at
Sunspear, and when he does he will expect to see Princess Myrcella... and Ser Arys, his Sworn
Brother. What shall we tell him, Arianne? Shall I say that Oakheart perished in a hunting
accident, or from a tumble down some slippery steps? Perhaps Arys went swimming at the Water
Gardens, slipped upon the marble, hit his head, and drowned?
No, Arianne said. Say that he died defending his little princess. Tell Ser Balon that Darkstar
tried to kill her and Ser Arys stepped between them and saved her life. That was how the white
knights of the Kingsguard were supposed to die, giving up their own lives for those that they had
sworn to protect. Ser Balon may be suspicious, as you were when the Lannisters killed your
sister and her children, but he will have no proof...

... until he speaks with Myrcella. Or must that brave child suffer a tragic accident as well? If
so, it will mean war. No lie will save Dorne from the queens wroth if her daughter should perish
whilst in my care.
He needs me, Arianne realized. Thats why he sent for me.
I could tell Myrcella what to say, but why should I?
A spasm of anger rippled across her fathers face. I warn you, Arianne, I am out of patience.
With me? That is so like him. For Lord Tywin and the Lannisters you always had the
forbearance of Baelor the Blessed, but for your own blood, none.
You mistake patience for forbearance. I have worked at the downfall of Tywin Lannister since
the day they told me of Elia and her children. It was my hope to strip him of all that he held most
dear before I killed him, but it would seem his dwarf son has robbed me of that pleasure. I take
some small solace in knowing that he died a cruel death at the hands of the monster that he
himself begot. Be that as it may. Lord Tywin is howling down in hell... where thousands more
will soon be joining him, if your folly turns to war. Her father grimaced, as if the very word
were painful to him. Is that what you want?
The princess refused to be cowed. I want my cousins freed. I want my uncle avenged. I want
my rights.
Your rights?
Dorne.
You will have Dorne after I am dead. Are you so anxious to be rid of me?
I should turn that question back on you, Father. You have been trying to rid yourself of me for
years.
That is not true.
No? Shall we ask my brother?
Trystane?
Quentyn.
What of him?
Where is he?
He is with Lord Yronwoods host in the Boneway.
You do lie well, Father, I will grant you that. You did not so much as blink. Quentyn has gone
to Lys.
Where did you get that notion?
A friend told me. She could have secrets too.
Your friend lied. You have my word, your brother has not gone to Lys. I swear it by sun and
spear and Seven.
Arianne could not be fooled so easily. Is it Myr, then? Tyrosh? I know he is somewhere across
the narrow sea, hiring sellswords to steal away my birthright.
Her fathers face darkened. This mistrust does you no honor, Arianne. Quentyn should be the
one conspiring against me. I sent him away when he was just a child, too young to understand

the needs of Dorne. Anders Yronwood has been more a father to him than I have, yet your
brother remains faithful and obedient.
Why not? You favor him and always have. He looks like you, he thinks like you, and you
mean to give him Dorne, dont trouble to deny it. I read your letter. The words still burned as
bright as fire in her memory. One day you will sit where I sit and rule all Dorne, you wrote
him. Tell me, Father, when did you decide to disinherit me? Was it the day that Quentyn was
born, or the day that I was born? What did I ever do to make you hate me so? To her fury, there
were tears in her eyes.
I never hated you. Prince Dorans voice was parchment-thin, and full of grief. Arianne, you
do not understand.
Do you deny you wrote those words?
No. That was when Quentyn first went to Yronwood. I did intend for him to follow me, yes. I
had other plans for you.
Oh, yes, she said scornfully, such plans. Gyles Rosby. Blind Ben Beesbury. Greybeard
Grandison. They were your plans.
She gave him no chance to reply. I know it is my duty to provide an heir for Dorne, I have
never been forgetful of that. I would have wed, and gladly, but the matches that you brought to
me were insults. With every one you spit on me. If you ever felt any love for me at all, why offer
me to Walder Frey?
Because I knew that you would spurn him. I had to be seen to try to find a consort for you
once youd reached a certain age, else it would have raised suspicions, but I dared not bring you
any man you might accept. You were promised, Arianne.
Promised? Arianne stared at him incredulously. What are you saying? Is this another lie? You
never said...
The pact was sealed in secret. I meant to tell you when you were old enough... when you came
of age, I thought, but...
I am three-and-twenty, for seven years a woman grown.
I know. If I kept you ignorant too long, it was only to protect you. Arianne, your nature... to
you, a secret was only a choice tale to whisper to Garin and Tyene in your bed of a night. Garin
gossips as only the orphans can, and Tyene keeps nothing from Obara and the Lady Nym. And if
they knew... Obara is too fond of wine, and Nym is too close to the Fowler twins. And who
might the Fowler twins confide in? I could not take the risk.
She was lost, confounded. Promised. I was promised. Who is it? Who have I been betrothed
to, all these years?
It makes no matter. He is dead.
That left her more baffled than ever. The old ones are so frail. Was it a broken hip, a chill, the
gout?
It was a pot of molten gold. We princes make our careful plans and the gods smash them all
awry. Prince Doran made a weary gesture with a chafed red hand. Dorne will be yours. You

have my word on that, if my word still has any meaning for you. Your brother Quentyn has a
harder road to walk.
What road? Arianne regarded him suspiciously. What are you holding back? Seven save me,
but I am sick of secrets. Tell me the rest, Father... or else name Quentyn your heir and send for
Hotah and his axe, and let me die beside my cousins.
Do you truly believe I would harm my brothers children? Her father grimaced. Obara,
Nym, and Tyene lack for nothing but their freedom, and Ellaria and her daughters are happily
ensconced at the Water Gardens. Dorea stalks about knocking oranges off the trees with her
morningstar, and Elia and Obella have become the terror of the pools. He sighed. It has not
been so long since you were playing in those pools. You used to ride the shoulders of an older
girl... a tall girl with wispy yellow hair...
Jeyne Fowler, or her sister Jennelyn. It had been years since Arianne had thought of that.
Oh, and Frynne, her father was a smith. Her hair was brown. Garin was my favorite, though.
When I rode Garin no one could defeat us, not even Nym and that green-haired Tyroshi girl.
That green-haired girl was the Archons daughter. I was to have sent you to Tyrosh in her
place. You would have served the Archon as a cupbearer and met with your betrothed in secret,
but your mother threatened to harm herself if I stole another of her children, and I... I could not
do that to her.
His tale grows ever stranger. Is that where Quentyns gone? To Tyrosh, to court the Archons
green-haired daughter?
Her father plucked up a cyvasse piece. I must know how you learned that Quentyn was abroad.
Your brother went with Cletus Yronwood, Maester Kedry, and three of Lord Yronwoods best
young knights on a long and perilous voyage, with an uncertain welcome at its end. He has gone
to bring us back our hearts desire.
She narrowed her eyes. What is our hearts desire?
Vengeance. His voice was soft, as if he were afraid that someone might be listening.
Justice. Prince Doran pressed the onyx dragon into her palm with his swollen, gouty fingers,
and whispered, Fire and blood.

ALAYNE
She turned the iron ring and pushed the door open, just a crack. Sweetrobin? she called.
May I enter?
Have a care, mlady, warned old Gretchel, wringing her hands. His lordship threw his
chamber pot at the maester.
Then he has none to throw at me. Isnt there some work you should be doing? And you,
Maddy... are all the windows closed and shuttered? Have all the furnishings been covered?
All of them, mlady, said Maddy.
Best make certain of it. Alayne slipped into the darkened bedchamber. Its only me,
Sweetrobin.
Someone sniffled in the darkness. Are you alone?
I am, my lord.
Come close, then. Just you.
Alayne shut the door firmly behind her. It was solid oak, four inches thick; Maddy and Gretchel
might listen all they wished, but they would hear nothing. That was just as well. Gretchel could
hold her tongue, but Maddy gossiped shamelessly.
Did Maester Colemon send you? the boy asked.
No, she lied. I heard my Sweetrobin was ailing. After his encounter with the chamber pot
the maester had come running to Ser Lothor, and Brune had come to her. If mlady can talk him
out of bed nice, the knight said, I wont have to drag him out.
We cant have that, she told herself. When Robert was handled roughly he was apt to go into a
shaking fit. Are you hungry, my lord? she asked the little lord. Shall I send Maddy down for
berries and cream, or some warm bread and butter? Too late she remembered that there was no
warm bread; the kitchens were closed, the ovens cold. If it gets Robert out of bed, it would be
worth the bother of lighting a fire, she told herself.
I dont want food, the little lord said, in a reedy, petulant voice. Im going to stay in bed
today. You could read to me if you want.
It is too dark in here for reading. The heavy curtains drawn across the windows made the
bedchamber black as night. Has my Sweetrobin forgotten what day this is?
No, he said, but Im not going. I want to stay in bed. You could read to me about the
Winged Knight.
The Winged Knight was Ser Artys Arryn. Legend said that he had driven the First Men from
the Vale and flown to the top of the Giants Lance on a huge falcon to slay the Griffin King.
There were a hundred tales of his adventures. Little Robert knew them all so well he could have
recited them from memory, but he liked to have them read to him all the same. Sweetling, we
have to go, she told the boy, but I promise, Ill read you two tales of the Winged Knight when
we reach the Gates of the Moon.
Three, he said at once. No matter what you offered him, Robert always wanted more.
Three, she agreed. Might I let some sun in?

No. The light hurts my eyes. Come to bed, Alayne.
She went to the windows anyway, edging around the broken chamber pot. She could smell it
better than she saw it. I shant open them very wide. Only enough to see my Sweetrobins face.
He sniffled. If you must.
The curtains were of plush blue velvet. She pulled one back a fingers length and tied it off.
Dust motes danced in a shaft of pale morning light. The small diamond-shaped panes of the
window were obscured by frost. Alayne rubbed at one with the heel of her hand, enough to
glimpse a brilliant blue sky and a blaze of white from the mountainside. The Eyrie was wrapped
in an icy mantle, the Giants Lance above buried in waist-deep snows.
When she turned back, Robert Arryn was propped up against the pillows looking at her. The
Lord of the Eyrie and Defender of the Vale. A woolen blanket covered him below the waist.
Above it he was naked, a pasty boy with hair as long as any girls. Robert had spindly arms and
legs, a soft concave chest and little belly, and eyes that were always red and runny. He cannot
help the way he is. He was born small and sickly. You look very strong this morning, my lord.
He loved to be told how strong he was. Shall I have Maddy and Gretchel fetch hot water for
your bath? Maddy will scrub your back for you and wash your hair, to make you clean and lordly
for your journey. Wont that be nice?
No. I hate Maddy. She has a wart on her eye, and she scrubs so hard it hurts. My mommy
never hurt me scrubbing.
I will tell Maddy not to scrub my Sweetrobin so hard. Youll feel better when youre fresh and
clean.
No bath, I told you, my head hurts most awfully.
Shall I bring you a warm cloth for your brow? Or a cup of dreamwine? Only a little one,
though. Mya Stone is waiting down at Sky, and shell be hurt if you go to sleep on her. You
know how much she loves you.
I dont love her. Shes just the mule girl. Robert sniffled. Maester Colemon put something
vile in my milk last night, I could taste it. I told him I wanted sweetmilk, but he wouldnt bring
me any. Not even when I commanded him. I am the lord, he should do what I say. No one does
what I say.
Ill speak to him, Alayne promised, but only if you get up out of bed. Its beautiful outside,
Sweetrobin. The sun is shining bright, a perfect day for going down the mountain. The mules are
waiting down at Sky with Mya...
His mouth quivered. I hate those smelly mules. One tried to bite me once! You tell that Mya
that Im staying here. He sounded as if he were about to cry. No one can hurt me so long as I
stay here. The Eyrie is impregnable.
Who would want to hurt my Sweetrobin? Your lords and knights adore you, and the smallfolk
cheer your name. He is afraid, she thought, and with good reason. Since his lady mother had
fallen, the boy would not even stand upon a balcony, and the way from the Eyrie to the Gates of
the Moon was perilous enough to daunt anyone. Alaynes heart had been in her throat when she
made her own ascent with Lady Lysa and Lord Petyr, and everyone agreed that the descent was

even more harrowing, since you were looking down the whole time. Mya could tell of great lords
and bold knights who had gone pale and wet their smallclothes on the mountain. And none of
them had the shaking sickness either.
Still, it would not serve. On the valley floor autumn still lingered, warm and golden, but winter
had closed around the mountain peaks. They had weathered three snowstorms, and an ice storm
that transformed the castle into crystal for a fortnight. The Eyrie might be impregnable, but it
would soon be inaccessible as well, and the way down grew more hazardous every day. Most of
the castles servants and soldiers had already made the descent. Only a dozen still lingered up
here, to attend Lord Robert.
Sweetrobin, she said gently, the descent will be ever so jolly, youll see. Ser Lothor will be
with us, and Mya. Her mules have gone up and down this old mountain a thousand times.
I hate mules, he insisted. Mules are nasty. I told you, one tried to bite me when I was little.
Robert had never learned to ride properly, she knew. Mules, horses, donkeys, it made no matter;
to him they were all fearsome beasts, as terrifying as dragons or griffins. He had been brought to
the Vale at six, riding with his head cradled between his mothers milky breasts, and had never
left the Eyrie since.
Still, they had to go, before the ice closed about the castle for good. There was no telling how
long the weather would hold. Mya will keep the mules from biting, Alayne said, and Ill be
riding just behind you. Im only a girl, not as brave or strong as you. If I can do it, I know you
can, Sweetrobin.
I could do it, Lord Robert said, but I dont choose to. He swiped at his runny nose with the
back of his hand. Tell Mya I am going to stay abed. Perhaps I will come down on the morrow,
if I feel better. Today is too cold out, and my head hurts. You can have some sweetmilk too, and
Ill tell Gretchel to bring us some honeycombs to eat. Well sleep and kiss and play games, and
you can read me about the Winged Knight.
I will. Three tales, as I promised... when we reach the Gates of the Moon. Alayne was
running short of patience. We have to go, she reminded herself, or well still be above the snow
line when the sun goes down. Lord Nestor has prepared a feast to welcome you, mushroom
soup and venison and cakes. You dont want to disappoint him, do you?
Will they be lemon cakes? Lord Robert loved lemon cakes, perhaps because Alayne did.
Lemony lemony lemon cakes, she assured him, and you can have as many as you like.
A hundred? he wanted to know. Could I have a hundred?
If it please you. She sat on the bed and smoothed his long, fine hair. He does have pretty hair.
Lady Lysa had brushed it herself every night, and cut it when it wanted cutting. After she had
fallen Robert had suffered terrible shaking fits whenever anyone came near him with a blade, so
Petyr had commanded that his hair be allowed to grow. Alayne wound a lock around her finger,
and said, Now, will you get out of bed and let us dress you?
I want a hundred lemon cakes and five tales!
Id like to give you a hundred spankings and five slaps. You would not dare behave like this if
Petyr were here. The little lord had a good healthy fear of his stepfather. Alayne forced a smile.

As my lord desires. But nothing till youre washed and dressed and on your way. Come, before
the mornings gone. She took him firmly by the hand, and drew him out of bed.
Before she could summon the servants, however, Sweetrobin threw his skinny arms around her
and kissed her. It was a little boys kiss, and clumsy. Everything Robert Arryn did was clumsy. If
I close my eyes I can pretend he is the Knight of Flowers. Ser Loras had given Sansa Stark a red
rose once, but he had never kissed her... and no Tyrell would ever kiss Alayne Stone. Pretty as
she was, she had been born on the wrong side of the blanket.
As the boys lips touched her own she found herself thinking of another kiss. She could still
remember how it felt, when his cruel mouth pressed down on her own. He had come to Sansa in
the darkness as green fire filled the sky. He took a song and a kiss, and left me nothing but a
bloody cloak.
It made no matter. That day was done, and so was Sansa.
Alayne pushed her little lord away. Thats enough. You can kiss me again when we reach the
Gates, if you keep your word.
Maddy and Gretchel were waiting outside with Maester Colemon. The maester had washed the
night soil from his hair and changed his robe. Roberts squires had turned up as well. Terrance
and Gyles could always sniff out trouble.
Lord Robert is feeling stronger, Alayne told the serving women. Fetch hot water for his
bath, but see you dont scald him. And do not pull on his hair when you brush out the tangles, he
hates that. One of the squires sniggered, until she said, Terrance, lay out his lordships riding
clothes and his warmest cloak. Gyles, you may clean up that broken chamber pot.
Gyles Grafton made a face. Im no scrubwoman.
Do as Lady Alayne commands, or Lothor Brune will hear of it, said Maester Colemon. He
followed her along the hallway and down the twisting stairs. I am grateful for your intercession,
my lady. You have a way with him. He hesitated. Did you observe any shaking while you were
with him?
His fingers trembled a little bit when I held his hand, thats all. He says you put something vile
in his milk.
Vile? Colemon blinked at her, and the apple in his throat moved up and down. I merely... is
he bleeding from the nose?
No.
Good. That is good. His chain clinked softly as he bobbed his head, atop a ridiculously long
and skinny neck. This descent... my lady, it might be safest if I mixed his lordship some milk of
the poppy. Mya Stone could lash him over the back of her most surefooted mule whilst he
slumbered.
The Lord of the Eyrie cannot descend from his mountain tied up like a sack of barleycorn. Of
that Alayne was certain. They dare not let the full extent of Roberts frailty and cowardice
become too widely known, her father had warned her. I wish he were here. He would know what
to do.

Petyr Baelish was clear across the Vale, though, attending Lord Lyonel Corbray at his wedding.
A widower of forty-odd years, and childless, Lord Lyonel was to wed the strapping sixteen-year-
old daughter of a rich Gulltown merchant. Petyr had brokered the match himself. The brides
dower was said to be staggering; it had to be, since she was of common birth. Corbrays vassals
would be there, with the Lords Waxley, Grafton, Lynderly, some petty lords and landed
knights... and Lord Belmore, who had lately reconciled with her father. The other Lords
Declarant were expected to shun the nuptials, so Petyrs presence was essential.
Alayne understood all that well enough, but it meant that the burden of getting Sweetrobin
safely down the mountain fell on her. Give his lordship a cup of sweetmilk, she told the
maester. That will stop him from shaking on the journey down.
He had a cup not three days past, Colemon objected.
And wanted another last night, which you refused him.
It was too soon. My lady, you do not understand. As Ive told the Lord Protector, a pinch of
sweetsleep will prevent the shaking, but it does not leave the flesh, and in time...
Time will not matter if his lordship has a shaking fit and falls off the mountain. If my father
were here, I know he would tell you to keep Lord Robert calm at all costs.
I try, my lady, yet his fits grow ever more violent, and his blood is so thin I dare not leech him
any more. Sweetsleep... you are certain he was not bleeding from the nose?
He was sniffling, Alayne admitted, but I saw no blood.
I must speak to the Lord Protector. This feast... is that wise, I wonder, after the strain of the
descent?
It will not be a large feast, she assured him. No more than forty guests. Lord Nestor and his
household, the Knight of the Gate, a few lesser lords and their retainers...
Lord Robert mislikes strangers, you know that, and there will be drinking, noise... music.
Music frightens him.
Music soothes him, she corrected, the high harp especially. Its singing he cant abide, since
Marillion killed his mother. Alayne had told the lie so many times that she remembered it that
way more oft than not; the other seemed no more than a bad dream that sometimes troubled her
sleep. Lord Nestor will have no singers at the feast, only flutes and fiddles for the dancing.
What would she do when the music began to play? It was a vexing question, to which her heart
and head gave different answers. Sansa loved to dance, but Alayne... Just give him a cup of the
sweetmilk before we go, and another at the feast, and there should be no trouble.
Very well. They paused at the foot of the stairs. But this must be the last. For half a year, or
longer.
You had best take that up with the Lord Protector. She pushed through the door and crossed
the yard. Colemon only wanted the best for his charge, Alayne knew, but what was best for
Robert the boy and what was best for Lord Arryn were not always the same. Petyr had said as
much, and it was true. Maester Colemon cares only for the boy, though. Father and I have larger
concerns.

Old snow cloaked the courtyard, and icicles hung down like crystal spears from the terraces and
towers. The Eyrie was built of fine white stone, and winters mantle made it whiter still. So
beautiful, Alayne thought, so impregnable. She could not love this place, no matter how she
tried. Even before the guards and serving men had made their descent, the castle had seemed as
empty as a tomb, and more so when Petyr Baelish was away. No one sang up there, not since
Marillion. No one ever laughed too loud. Even the gods were silent. The Eyrie boasted a sept,
but no septon; a godswood, but no heart tree. No prayers are answered here, she often thought,
though some days she felt so lonely she had to try. Only the wind answered her, sighing
endlessly around the seven slim white towers and rattling the Moon Door every time it gusted. It
will be even worse in winter, she knew. In winter this will be a cold white prison.
And yet the thought of leaving frightened her almost as much as it frightened Robert. She only
hid it better. Her father said there was no shame in being afraid, only in showing your fear. All
men live with fear, he said. Alayne was not certain she believed that. Nothing frightened Petyr
Baelish. He only said that to make me brave. She would need to be brave down below, where the
chance of being unmasked was so much greater. Petyrs friends at court had sent him word that
the queen had men out looking for the Imp and Sansa Stark. It will mean my head if I am found,
she reminded herself as she descended a flight of icy stone steps. I must be Alayne all the time,
inside and out.
Lothor Brune was in the winch room, helping the gaoler Mord and two serving men wrestle
chests of clothes and bales of cloth into six huge oaken buckets, each big enough around to hold
three men. The great chain winches were the easiest way to reach the waycastle Sky, six hundred
feet below them; elsewise you had to descend the natural stone chimney from the undercellar. Or
go the way Marillion went, and Lady Lysa before him.
Boy out of bed? Ser Lothor asked.
Theyre bathing him. He will be ready within the hour.
We best hope he is. Mya wont wait past midday. The winch room was unheated, so his
breath misted with every word.
Shell wait, Alayne said. She has to wait.
Dont be so certain, mlady. Shes half mule herself, that one. I think shed leave us all to
starve before shed put those animals at risk. He smiled when he said it. He always smiles when
he speaks of Mya Stone. Mya was much younger than Ser Lothor, but when her father had been
brokering the marriage between Lord Corbray and his merchants daughter, hed told her that
young girls were always happiest with older men. Innocence and experience make for a perfect
marriage, he had said.
Alayne wondered what Mya made of Ser Lothor. With his squashed nose, square jaw, and nap
of woolly grey hair, Brune could not be called comely, but he was not ugly either. It is a common
face but an honest one. Though he had risen to knighthood, Ser Lothors birth had been very low.
One night he had told her that he was kin to the Brunes of Brownhollow, an old knightly family
from Crackclaw Point. I went to them when my father died, he confessed, but they shat on
me, and said I was no blood of theirs. He would not speak of what happened after that, except to

say that he had learned all he knew of arms the hard way. Sober, he was a quiet man, but a strong
one. And Petyr says hes loyal. He trusts him as much as he trusts anyone. Brune would be a
good match for a bastard girl like Mya Stone, she thought. It might be different if her father had
acknowledged her, but he never did. And Maddy says that shes no maid either.
Mord took up his whip and cracked it, and the first pair of oxen began to lumber in a circle,
turning the winch. The chain uncoiled, rattling as it scraped across the stone, the oaken bucket
swaying as it began its long descent to Sky. Poor oxen, thought Alayne. Mord would cut their
throats and butcher them before he left, and leave them for the falcons. Whatever part remained
when the Eyrie was reopened would be roasted up for the spring feast, if it had not spoiled. A
good supply of hard frozen meat foretold a summer of plenty, old Gretchel claimed.
Mlady, Ser Lothor said, youd best know. Mya didnt come up alone. Lady Myrandas with
her.
Oh. Why would she ride all the way up the mountain, just to ride back down again? Myranda
Royce was the Lord Nestors daughter. The one time that Sansa had visited the Gates of the
Moon, on the way up to the Eyrie with her aunt Lysa and Lord Petyr, she had been away, but
Alayne had heard much of her since from the Eyries soldiers and serving girls. Her mother was
long dead, so Lady Myranda kept her fathers castle for him; it was a much livelier court when
she was home than when she was away, according to rumor. Soon or late you must meet
Myranda Royce, Petyr had warned her. When you do, be careful. She likes to play the merry
fool, but underneath shes shrewder than her father. Guard your tongue around her.
I will, she thought, but I did not know Id need to start so soon. Robert will be pleased. He
liked Myranda Royce. You must excuse me, ser. I need to finish packing. Alone, she climbed
the steps back to her room for one last time. The windows had been sealed and shuttered, the
furnishings covered. A few of her things had already been removed, the rest stored away. All of
Lady Lysas silks and samites were to be left behind. Her sheerest linens and plushest velvets,
the rich embroidery and fine Myrish lace; all would remain. Down below, Alayne must dress
modestly, as befit a girl of modest birth. It makes no matter, she told herself. I dared not wear the
best clothes even here.
Gretchel had stripped the bed and laid out the rest of her clothing. Alayne was already wearing
woolen hose beneath her skirts, over a double layer of smallclothes. Now she donned a
lambswool overtunic and a hooded fur cloak, fastening it with an enameled mockingbird that had
been a gift from Petyr. There was a scarf as well, and a pair of leather gloves lined with fur to
match her riding boots. When shed donned it all, she felt as fat and furry as a bear cub. I will be
glad of it on the mountain, she had to remind herself. She took one last look at her room before
she left. I was safe here, she thought, but down below...
When Alayne returned to the winch room, she found Mya Stone waiting impatiently with
Lothor Brune and Mord. She must have come up in the bucket to see what was taking us so long.
Slim and sinewy, Mya looked as tough as the old riding leathers she wore beneath her silvery
ringmail shirt. Her hair was black as a ravens wing, so short and shaggy that Alayne suspected
that she cut it with a dagger. Myas eyes were her best feature, big and blue. She could be pretty,

if she would dress up like a girl. Alayne found herself wondering whether Ser Lothor liked her
best in her iron and leather, or dreamed of her gowned in lace and silk. Mya liked to say that her
father had been a goat and her mother an owl, but Alayne had gotten the true story from Maddy.
Yes, she thought, looking at her now, those are his eyes, and she has his hair too, the thick black
hair he shared with Renly.
Where is he? the bastard girl demanded.
His lordship is being bathed and dressed.
He needs to make some haste. Its getting colder, cant you feel it? We need to get below
Snow before the sun goes down.
How bad is the wind? Alayne asked her.
It could be worse... and will be, after dark. Mya pushed a lock of hair from her eyes. If he
bathes much longer, well be trapped up here all winter with nothing to eat except each other.
Alayne did not know what to say to that. Thankfully, she was spared by the arrival of Robert
Arryn. The little lord wore sky-blue velvet, a chain of gold and sapphires, and a white bearskin
cloak. His squires each held an end, to keep the cloak from dragging on the floor. Maester
Colemon accompanied them, in a threadbare grey cloak lined with squirrel fur. Gretchel and
Maddy were not far behind.
When he felt the cold wind on his face, Robert quailed, but Terrance and Gyles were behind
him, so he could not flee. My lord, said Mya, will you ride down with me?
Too brusque, Alayne thought. She should have greeted him with a smile, told him how strong
and brave he looks.
I want Alayne, Lord Robert said. Ill only go with her.
The bucket can hold all three of us.
I just want Alayne. You smell all stinky, like a mule.
As you wish. Myas face showed no emotion.
Some of the winch chains were fixed to wicker baskets, others to stout oaken buckets. The
largest of those was taller than Alayne, with iron bands girding its dark brown staves. Even so,
her heart was in her throat as she took Roberts hand and helped him in. Once the hatch was
closed behind them, the wood surrounded them on all sides. Only the top was open. It is best that
way, she told herself, we cant look down. Below them was only Sky and sky. Six hundred feet
of sky. For a moment she found herself wondering how long it had taken her aunt to fall that
distance, and what her last thought had been as the mountain rushed up to meet her. No, I
mustnt think of that. I mustnt!
AWAY! came Ser Lothors shout. Someone shoved the bucket hard. It swayed and tipped,
scraped against the floor, then swung free. She heard the crack of Mords whip and the rattle of
the chain. They began to descend, by jerks and starts at first, then more smoothly. Roberts face
was pale and his eyes puffy, but his hands were still. The Eyrie shrank above them. The sky cells
on the lower levels made the castle look something like a honeycomb from below. A honeycomb
made of ice, Alayne thought, a castle made of snow. She could hear the wind whistling round the
bucket.

A hundred feet down, a sudden gust caught hold of them. The bucket swayed sideways,
spinning in the air, then bumped hard against the rock face behind them. Shards of ice and snow
rained down on them, and the oak creaked and strained. Robert gave a gasp and clung to her,
burying his face between her breasts.
My lord is brave, Alayne said, when she felt him shaking. Im so frightened I can hardly
talk, but not you.
She felt him nod. The Winged Knight was brave, and so am I, he boasted to her bodice. Im
an Arryn.
Will my Sweetrobin hold me tight? she asked, though he was already holding her so tightly
that she could scarcely breathe.
If you like, he whispered. And clinging hard to one another, they continued on straight down
to Sky.
Calling this a castle is like calling a puddle on a privy floor a lake, Alayne thought, when the
bucket was opened so they might emerge within the waycastle. Sky was no more than a crescent-
shaped wall of old unmortared stone, enclosing a stony ledge and the yawning mouth of a
cavern. Inside were storehouses and stables, a long natural hall, and the chiseled handholds that
led up to the Eyrie. Outside, the ground was strewn by broken stones and boulders. Earthen
ramps gave access to the wall. Six hundred feet above, the Eyrie was so small she could hide it
with her hand, but far below the Vale stretched green and golden.
Twenty mules awaited them within the waycastle, along with two mule-walkers and the Lady
Myranda Royce. Lord Nestors daughter proved to be a short, fleshy woman, of an age with Mya
Stone, but where Mya was slim and sinewy, Myranda was soft-bodied and sweet-smelling, broad
of hip, thick of waist, and extremely buxom. Her thick chestnut curls framed round red cheeks, a
small mouth, and a pair of lively brown eyes. When Robert climbed gingerly from the bucket,
she knelt in a patch of snow to kiss his hand and cheeks. My lord, she said, youve grown so
big!
Have I? said Robert, pleased.
You will be taller than me soon, the lady lied. She got to her feet and brushed the snow from
her skirts. And you must be the Lord Protectors daughter, she added, as the bucket went
rattling back up to the Eyrie. I had heard that you were beautiful. I see that it is true.
Alayne curtsied. My lady is kind to say so.
Kind? The older girl gave a laugh. How boring that would be. I aspire to be wicked. You
must tell me all your secrets on the ride down. May I call you Alayne?
If you wish, my lady. But youll get no secrets from me.
I am my lady at the Gates, but up here on the mountain you may call me Randa. How many
years have you, Alayne?
Four-and-ten, my lady. She had decided that Alayne Stone should be older than Sansa Stark.
Randa. It seems a hundred years since I was four-and-ten. How innocent I was. Are you still
innocent, Alayne?
She blushed. You should not... yes, of course.

Saving yourself for Lord Robert? Lady Myranda teased. Or is there some ardent squire
dreaming of your favors?
No, said Alayne, even as Robert said, Shes my friend. Terrance and Gyles cant have her.
A second bucket had arrived by then, thumping down softly on a mound of frozen snow.
Maester Colemon emerged with the squires Terrance and Gyles. The next winch delivered
Maddy and Gretchel, who rode with Mya Stone. The bastard girl wasted no time taking charge.
We dont want to get bunched up on the mountain, she told the other mule handlers. Ill take
Lord Robert and his companions. Ossy, youll bring down Ser Lothor and the rest, but give me
an hours lead. Carrot, youll have charge of their chests and boxes. She turned to Robert Arryn,
her black hair blowing. Which mule will you ride today, my lord?
Theyre all stinky. Ill have the grey one, with the ear chewed off. I want Alayne to ride with
me. And Myranda too.
Where the way is wide enough. Come, my lord, lets get you on your mule. Theres a smell of
snow in the air.
It was another half hour before they were ready to set out. When all of them were mounted up,
Mya Stone gave a crisp command, and two of Skys men-at-arms swung the gates open. Mya led
them out, with Lord Robert just behind her, swaddled in his bearskin cloak. Alayne and Myranda
Royce followed, then Gretchel and Maddy, then Terrance Lynderly and Gyles Grafton. Maester
Colemon brought up the rear, leading a second mule laden with his chests of herbs and potions.
Beyond the walls, the wind picked up sharply. They were above the tree line here, exposed to
the elements. Alayne was thankful that shed dressed so warmly. Her cloak was flapping noisily
behind her, and a sudden gust blew back her hood. She laughed, but a few yards ahead Lord
Robert squirmed, and said, Its too cold. We should go back and wait until its warmer.
It will be warmer on the valley floor, my lord, said Mya. Youll see when we get down
there.
I dont want to see, said Robert, but Mya paid no mind.
Their road was a crooked series of stone steps carved into the mountainside, but the mules
knew every inch of it. Alayne was glad of that. Here and there the stone was shattered from the
strain of countless seasons, with all their thaws and freezes. Patches of snow clung to the rock on
either side of the path, blinding white. The sun was bright, the sky was blue, and there were
falcons circling overhead, riding on the wind.
Up here where the slope was steepest, the steps wound back and forth rather than plunging
straight down. Sansa Stark went up the mountain, but Alayne Stone is coming down. It was a
strange thought. Coming up, Mya had warned her to keep her eyes on the path ahead, she
remembered. Look up, not down, she said... but that was not possible on the descent. I could
close my eyes. The mule knows the way, he has no need of me. But that seemed more something
Sansa would have done, that frightened girl. Alayne was an older woman, and bastard brave.
At first they rode in single file, but farther down the path widened enough for two to ride
abreast, and Myranda Royce came up beside her. We have had a letter from your father, she
said, as casually as if they were sitting with their septa, doing needlework. He is on his way

home, he says, and hopes to see his darling daughter soon. He writes that Lyonel Corbray seems
well pleased with his bride, and even more so with her dowry. I do hope Lord Lyonel remembers
which one he needs to bed. Lady Waynwood turned up with the Knight of Ninestars for the
wedding feast, Lord Petyr says, to everyones astonishment.
Anya Waynwood? Truly? The Lords Declarant were down from six to three, it would seem.
The day hed departed the mountain, Petyr Baelish had been confident of winning Symond
Templeton to his side, but not so Lady Waynwood. Was there more? she asked. The Eyrie was
such a lonely place that she was eager for any bit of news from the world beyond, however
trivial or insignificant.
Not from your father, no, but weve had other birds. The war goes on, everywhere but here.
Riverrun has yielded, but Dragonstone and Storms End still hold for Lord Stannis.
Lady Lysa was so wise, to keep us out of it.
Myranda gave her a shrewd little smile. Yes, she was the very soul of wisdom, that good
lady. She shifted her seat. Why must mules be so bony and ill-tempered? Mya does not feed
them enough. A nice fat mule would be more comfortable to ride. Theres a new High Septon,
did you know? Oh, and the Nights Watch has a boy commander, some bastard son of Eddard
Starks.
Jon Snow? she blurted out, surprised.
Snow? Yes, it would be Snow, I suppose.
She had not thought of Jon in ages. He was only her half brother, but still... with Robb and Bran
and Rickon dead, Jon Snow was the only brother that remained to her. I am a bastard too now,
just like him. Oh, it would be so sweet, to see him once again. But of course that could never be.
Alayne Stone had no brothers, baseborn or otherwise.
Our cousin Bronze Yohn had himself a mle at Runestone, Myranda Royce went on,
oblivious, a small one, just for squires. It was meant for Harry the Heir to win the honors, and
so he did.
Harry the Heir?
Lady Waynwoods ward. Harrold Hardyng. I suppose we must call him Ser Harry now.
Bronze Yohn knighted him.
Oh. Alayne was confused. Why should Lady Waynwoods ward be her heir? She had sons of
her own blood. One was the Knight of the Bloody Gate, Ser Donnel. She did not want to look
stupid, though, so all she said was, I pray he proves a worthy knight.
Lady Myranda snorted. I pray he gets the pox. He has a bastard daughter by some common
girl, you know. My lord father had hoped to marry me to Harry, but Lady Waynwood would not
hear of it. I do not know whether it was me she found unsuitable, or just my dowry. She gave a
sigh. I do need another husband. I had one once, but I killed him.
You did? Alayne said, shocked.
Oh, yes. He died on top of me. In me, if truth be told. You do know what goes on in a
marriage bed, I hope?

She thought of Tyrion, and of the Hound and how hed kissed her, and gave a nod. That must
have been dreadful, my lady. Him dying. There, I mean, whilst... whilst he was...
... fucking me? She shrugged. It was disconcerting, certainly. Not to mention discourteous.
He did not even have the common decency to plant a child in me. Old men have weak seed. So
here I am, a widow, but scarce used. Harry could have done much worse. I daresay that he will.
Lady Waynwood will most like marry him to one of her granddaughters, or one of Bronze
Yohns.
As you say, my lady. Alayne remembered Petyrs warning.
Randa. Come now, you can say it. Ran. Da.
Randa.
Much better. I fear I must apologize to you. You will think me a dreadful slut, I know, but I
bedded that pretty boy Marillion. I did not know he was a monster. He sang beautifully, and
could do the sweetest things with his fingers. I would never have taken him to bed if I had known
he was going to push Lady Lysa through the Moon Door. I do not bed monsters, as a rule. She
studied Alaynes face and chest. You are prettier than me, but my breasts are larger. The
maesters say large breasts produce no more milk than small ones, but I do not believe it. Have
you ever known a wet nurse with small teats? Yours are ample for a girl your age, but as they are
bastard breasts, I shant concern myself with them. Myranda edged her mule closer. You know
our Myas not a maid, I trust?
She did. Fat Maddy had whispered it to her, one time when Mya brought up their supplies.
Maddy told me.
Of course she did. She has a mouth as big as her thighs, and her thighs are enormous. Mychel
Redfort was the one. He used to be Lyn Corbrays squire. A real squire, not like that loutish lad
Ser Lyns got squiring for him now. He only took that one on for coin, they say. Mychel was the
best young swordsman in the Vale, and gallant... or so poor Mya thought, till he wed one of
Bronze Yohns daughters. Lord Horton gave him no choice in the matter, I am sure, but it was
still a cruel thing to do to Mya.
Ser Lothor is fond of her. Alayne glanced down at the mule girl, twenty steps below. More
than fond.
Lothor Brune? Myranda raised an eyebrow. Does she know? She did not wait for an
answer. He has no hope, poor man. My fathers tried to make a match for Mya, but shell have
none of them. She is half mule, that one.
Despite herself, Alayne found herself warming to the older girl. She had not had a friend to
gossip with since poor Jeyne Poole. Do you think Ser Lothor likes her as she is, in mail and
leather? she asked the older girl, who seemed so worldly-wise. Or does he dream of her draped
in silks and velvets?
Hes a man. He dreams of her naked.
She is trying to make me blush again.

Lady Myranda must have heard her thoughts. You do turn such a pretty shade of pink. When I
blush I look quite like an apple. I have not blushed for years, though. She leaned closer. Does
your father plan to wed again?
My father? Alayne had never considered that. Somehow the notion made her squirm. She
found herself remembering the look on Lysa Arryns face as shed tumbled through the Moon
Door.
We all know how devoted he was to Lady Lysa, said Myranda, but he cannot mourn forever.
He needs a pretty young wife to wash away his grief. I imagine he could have his pick of half the
noble maidens in the Vale. Who could be a better husband than our own bold Lord Protector?
Though I do wish he had a better name than Littlefinger. How little is it, do you know?
His finger? She blushed again. I dont... I never...
Lady Myranda laughed so loud that Mya Stone glanced back at them. Never you mind,
Alayne, Im sure its large enough.
They passed beneath a wind-carved arch, where long icicles clung to the pale stone, dripping
down on them. On the far side the path narrowed and plunged down sharply for a hundred feet or
more. Myranda was forced to drop back. Alayne gave the mule his head. The steepness of this
part of the descent made her cling tightly to her saddle. The steps here had been worn smooth by
the iron-shod hooves of all the mules whod passed this way, until they resembled a series of
shallow stone bowls. Water filled the bottoms of the bowls, glimmering golden in the afternoon
sun. It is water now, Alayne thought, but come dark, all of it will turn to ice. She realized that
she was holding her breath, and let it out. Mya Stone and Lord Robert had almost reached the
rock spire where the slope leveled off again. She tried to look at them, and only them. I will not
fall, she told herself. Myas mule will see me through. The wind skirled around her, as she
bumped and scraped her way down step by step. It seemed to take a lifetime.
Then all at once she was at the bottom with Mya and her little lord, huddled beneath a twisted,
rocky spire. Ahead stretched a high stone saddle, narrow and icy. Alayne could hear the wind
shrieking, and feel it plucking at her cloak. She remembered this place from her ascent. It had
frightened her then, and it frightened her now. It is wider than it looks, Mya was telling Lord
Robert in a cheerful voice. A yard across, and no more than eight yards long, thats nothing.
Nothing, Robert said. His hand was shaking.
Oh, no, Alayne thought. Please. Not here. Not now.
Its best to lead the mules across, Mya said. If it please my lord, Ill take mine over first,
then come back for yours. Lord Robert did not answer. He was staring at the narrow saddle with
his reddened eyes. I shant be long, my lord, Mya promised, but Alayne doubted that the boy
could even hear her.
When the bastard girl led her mule out from beneath the shelter of the spire, the wind caught
her in its teeth. Her cloak lifted, twisting and flapping in the air. Mya staggered, and for half a
heartbeat it seemed as if she would be blown over the precipice, but somehow she regained her
balance and went on.

Alayne took Roberts gloved hand in her own to stop his shaking. Sweetrobin, she said, Im
scared. Hold my hand, and help me get across. I know youre not afraid.
He looked at her, his pupils small dark pinpricks in eyes as big and white as eggs. Im not?
Not you. Youre my winged knight, Ser Sweetrobin.
The Winged Knight could fly, Robert whispered.
Higher than the mountains. She gave his hand a squeeze.
Lady Myranda had joined them by the spire. He could, she echoed, when she saw what was
happening.
Ser Sweetrobin, Lord Robert said, and Alayne knew that she dare not wait for Mya to return.
She helped the boy dismount, and hand in hand they walked out onto the bare stone saddle, their
cloaks snapping and flapping behind them. All around was empty air and sky, the ground falling
away sharply to either side. There was ice underfoot, and broken stones just waiting to turn an
ankle, and the wind was howling fiercely. It sounds like a wolf, thought Sansa. A ghost wolf, big
as mountains.
And then they were on the other side, and Mya Stone was laughing and lifting Robert for a hug.
Be careful, Alayne told her. He can hurt you, flailing. You wouldnt think so, but he can.
They found a place for him, a cleft in the rock to keep him out of the cold wind. Alayne tended
him until the shaking passed, whilst Mya went back to help the others cross.
Fresh mules awaited them at Snow, and a hot meal of stewed goat and onions. She ate with
Mya and Myranda. So youre brave as well as beautiful, Myranda said to her.
No. The compliment made her blush. Im not. I was so scared. I dont think I could have
crossed without Lord Robert. She turned to Mya Stone. You almost fell.
Youre mistaken. I never fall. Myas hair had tumbled across her cheek, hiding one eye.
Almost, I said. I saw you. Werent you afraid?
Mya shook her head. I remember a man throwing me in the air when I was very little. He
stands as tall as the sky, and he throws me up so high it feels as though Im flying. Were both
laughing, laughing so much that I can hardly catch a breath, and finally I laugh so hard I wet
myself, but that only makes him laugh the louder. I was never afraid when he was throwing me. I
knew that he would always be there to catch me. She pushed her hair back. Then one day he
wasnt. Men come and go. They lie, or die, or leave you. A mountain is not a man, though, and a
stone is a mountains daughter. I trust my father, and I trust my mules. I wont fall. She put her
hand on a jagged spur of rock, and got to her feet. Best finish. We have a long way yet to go,
and I can smell a storm.
The snow began to fall as they were leaving Stone, the largest and lowest of the three
waycastles that defended the approaches to the Eyrie. Dusk was settling by then. Lady Myranda
suggested that perhaps they might turn back, spend the night at Stone, and resume their descent
when the sun came up, but Mya would not hear of it. The snow might be five feet deep by then,
and the steps treacherous even for my mules, she said. We will do better to press on. Well
take it slow.

And so they did. Below Stone the steps were broader and less steep, winding in and out of the
tall pines and grey-green sentinels that cloaked the lower slopes of the Giants Lance. Myas
mules knew every root and rock on the way down, it seemed, and any they forgot the bastard girl
remembered. Half the night was gone before they sighted the lights of the Gates of the Moon
through the falling snow. The last part of their journey was the most peaceful. The snow fell
steadily, cloaking all the world in white. Sweetrobin drifted to sleep in the saddle, swaying back
and forth with the motion of his mule. Even Lady Myranda began to yawn and complain of being
weary. We have apartments prepared for all of you, she told Alayne, but if you like you may
share my bed tonight. Its large enough for four.
I should be honored, my lady.
Randa. Count yourself fortunate that Im so tired. All I want to do is curl up and go to sleep.
Usually when ladies share my bed they have to pay a pillow tax and tell me all about the wicked
things theyve done.
What if they havent done any wicked things?
Why, then they must confess all the wicked things they want to do. Not you, of course. I can
see how virtuous you are just by looking at those rosy cheeks and big blue eyes of yours. She
yawned again. I hope your feet are warm. I do hate bedmaids with cold feet.
By the time they finally reached her fathers castle, Lady Myranda was drowsing too, and
Alayne was dreaming of her bed. It will be a featherbed, she told herself, soft and warm and
deep, piled high with furs. I will dream a sweet dream, and when I wake there will be dogs
barking, women gossiping beside the well, swords ringing in the yard. And later there will be a
feast, with music and dancing. After the deathly silence of the Eyrie, she yearned for shouts and
laughter.
As the riders were climbing off their mules, however, one of Petyrs guardsmen emerged from
within the keep. Lady Alayne, he said, the Lord Protector has been waiting for you.
Hes back? she said, startled.
At evenfall. Youll find him in the west tower.
The hour was closer to dawn than to dusk, and most of the castle was asleep, but not Petyr
Baelish. Alayne found him seated by a crackling fire, drinking hot mulled wine with three men
she did not know. They all rose when she entered, and Petyr smiled warmly. Alayne. Come,
give your father a kiss.
She hugged him dutifully and kissed him on the cheek. I am sorry to intrude, Father. No one
told me you had company.
You are never an intrusion, sweetling. I was just now telling these good knights what a dutiful
daughter I had.
Dutiful and beautiful, said an elegant young knight whose thick blond mane cascaded down
well past his shoulders.
Aye, said the second knight, a burly fellow with a thick salt-and-pepper beard, a red nose
bulbous with broken veins, and gnarled hands as large as hams. You left out that part, mlord.

I would do the same if she were my daughter, said the last knight, a short, wiry man with a
wry smile, pointed nose, and bristly orange hair. Particularly around louts like us.
Alayne laughed. Are you louts? she said, teasing. Why, I took the three of you for gallant
knights.
Knights they are, said Petyr. Their gallantry has yet to be demonstrated, but we may hope.
Allow me to present Ser Byron, Ser Morgarth, and Ser Shadrich. Sers, the Lady Alayne, my
natural and very clever daughter... with whom I must needs confer, if you will be so good as to
excuse us.
The three knights bowed and withdrew, though the tall one with the blond hair kissed her hand
before taking his leave.
Hedge knights? said Alayne, when the door had closed.
Hungry knights. I thought it best that we have a few more swords about us. The times grow
ever more interesting, my sweet, and when the times are interesting you can never have too many
swords. The Merling Kings returned to Gulltown, and old Oswell had some tales to tell.
She knew better than to ask what sort of tales. If Petyr had wanted her to know, he would have
told her. I did not expect you back so soon, she said. I am glad youve come.
I would never have known it from the kiss you gave me. He pulled her closer, caught her face
between his hands, and kissed her on the lips for a long time. Now thats the sort of kiss that
says welcome home. See that you do better next time.
Yes, Father. She could feel herself blushing.
He did not hold her kiss against her. You would not believe half of what is happening in
Kings Landing, sweetling. Cersei stumbles from one idiocy to the next, helped along by her
council of the deaf, the dim, and the blind. I always anticipated that she would beggar the realm
and destroy herself, but I never expected she would do it quite so fast. It is quite vexing. I had
hoped to have four or five quiet years to plant some seeds and allow some fruits to ripen, but
now... it is a good thing that I thrive on chaos. What little peace and order the five kings left us
will not long survive the three queens, I fear.
Three queens? She did not understand.
Nor did Petyr choose to explain. Instead, he smiled and said, I have brought my sweet girl
back a gift.
Alayne was as pleased as she was surprised. Is it a gown? She had heard there were fine
seamstresses in Gulltown, and she was so tired of dressing drably.
Something better. Guess again.
Jewels?
No jewels could hope to match my daughters eyes.
Lemons? Did you find some lemons? She had promised Sweetrobin lemon cake, and for
lemon cake you needed lemons.
Petyr Baelish took her by the hand and drew her down onto his lap. I have made a marriage
contract for you.

A marriage... Her throat tightened. She did not want to wed again, not now, perhaps not ever.
I do not... I cannot marry. Father, I... Alayne looked to the door, to make certain it was closed.
I am married, she whispered. You know.
Petyr put a finger to her lips to silence her. The dwarf wed Ned Starks daughter, not mine. Be
that as it may. This is only a betrothal. The marriage must needs wait until Cersei is done and
Sansas safely widowed. And you must meet the boy and win his approval. Lady Waynwood
will not make him marry against his will, she was quite firm on that.
Lady Waynwood? Alayne could hardly believe it. Why would she marry one of her sons
to... to a...
... bastard? For a start, you are the Lord Protectors bastard, never forget. The Waynwoods are
very old and very proud, but not as rich as one might think, as I discovered when I began buying
up their debt. Not that Lady Anya would ever sell a son for gold. A ward, however... young
Harrys only a cousin, and the dower that I offered her ladyship was even larger than the one that
Lyonel Corbray just collected. It had to be, for her to risk Bronze Yohns wroth. This will put all
his plans awry. You are promised to Harrold Hardyng, sweetling, provided you can win his
boyish heart... which should not be hard, for you.
Harry the Heir? Alayne tried to recall what Myranda had told her about him on the mountain.
He was just knighted. And he has a bastard daughter by some common girl.
And another on the way by a different wench. Harry can be a beguiling one, no doubt. Soft
sandy hair, deep blue eyes, and dimples when he smiles. And very gallant, I am told. He teased
her with a smile. Bastard-born or no, sweetling, when this match is announced you will be the
envy of every highborn maiden in the Vale, and a few from the riverlands and the Reach as
well.
Why? Alayne was lost. Is Ser Harrold... how could he be Lady Waynwoods heir? Doesnt
she have sons of her own blood?
Three, Petyr allowed. She could smell the wine on his breath, the cloves and nutmeg.
Daughters too, and grandsons.
Wont they come before Harry? I dont understand.
You will. Listen. Petyr took her hand in his own and brushed his finger lightly down the
inside of her palm. Lord Jasper Arryn, begin with him. Jon Arryns father. He begot three
children, two sons and a daughter. Jon was the eldest, so the Eyrie and the lordship passed to
him. His sister Alys wed Ser Elys Waynwood, uncle to the present Lady Waynwood. He made
a wry face. Elys and Alys, isnt that precious? Lord Jaspers younger son, Ser Ronnel Arryn,
wed a Belmore girl, but only rang her once or twice before dying of a bad belly. Their son Elbert
was being born in one bed even as poor Ronnel was dying in another down the hall. Are you
paying close attention, sweetling?
Yes. There was Jon and Alys and Ronnel, but Ronnel died.
Good. Now, Jon Arryn married thrice, but his first two wives gave him no children, so for long
years his nephew Elbert was his heir. Meantime, Elys was plowing Alys quite dutifully, and she
was whelping once a year. She gave him nine children, eight girls and one precious little boy,

another Jasper, after which she died exhausted. Boy Jasper, inconsiderate of the heroic efforts
that had gone into begetting him, got himself kicked in the head by a horse when he was three
years old. A pox took two of his sisters soon after, leaving six. The eldest married Ser Denys
Arryn, a distant cousin to the Lords of the Eyrie. There are several branches of House Arryn
scattered across the Vale, all as proud as they are penurious, save for the Gulltown Arryns, who
had the rare good sense to marry merchants. Theyre rich, but less than couth, so no one talks
about them. Ser Denys hailed from one of the poor, proud branches... but he was also a renowned
jouster, handsome and gallant and brimming with courtesy. And he had that magic Arryn name,
which made him ideal for the eldest Waynwood girl. Their children would be Arryns, and the
next heirs to the Vale should any ill befall Elbert. Well, as it happened, Mad King Aerys befell
Elbert. You know that story?
She did. The Mad King murdered him.
He did indeed. And soon after, Ser Denys left his pregnant Waynwood wife to ride to war. He
died during the Battle of the Bells, of an excess of gallantry and an axe. When they told his lady
of his death she perished of grief, and her newborn son soon followed. No matter. Jon Arryn had
gotten himself a young wife during the war, one he had reason to believe fertile. He was very
hopeful, Im sure, but you and I know that all he ever got from Lysa were stillbirths,
miscarriages, and poor Sweetrobin.
Which brings us back to the five remaining daughters of Elys and Alys. The eldest had been
left terribly scarred by the same pox that killed her sisters, so she became a septa. Another was
seduced by a sellsword. Ser Elys cast her out, and she joined the silent sisters after her bastard
died in infancy. The third wed the Lord of the Paps, but proved barren. The fourth was on her
way to the riverlands to marry some Bracken when Burned Men carried her off. That left the
youngest, who wed a landed knight sworn to the Waynwoods, gave him a son that she named
Harrold, and perished. He turned her hand over and lightly kissed her wrist. So tell me,
sweetlingwhy is Harry the Heir?
Her eyes widened. He is not Lady Waynwoods heir. Hes Roberts heir. If Robert were to
die...
Petyr arched an eyebrow. When Robert dies. Our poor brave Sweetrobin is such a sickly boy,
it is only a matter of time. When Robert dies, Harry the Heir becomes Lord Harrold, Defender of
the Vale and Lord of the Eyrie. Jon Arryns bannermen will never love me, nor our silly, shaking
Robert, but they will love their Young Falcon... and when they come together for his wedding,
and you come out with your long auburn hair, clad in a maidens cloak of white and grey with a
direwolf emblazoned on the back... why, every knight in the Vale will pledge his sword to win
you back your birthright. So those are your gifts from me, my sweet Sansa... Harry, the Eyrie,
and Winterfell. Thats worth another kiss now, dont you think?

BRIENNE
This is an evil dream, she thought. But if she were dreaming, why did it hurt so much?
The rain had stopped falling, but all the world was wet. Her cloak felt as heavy as her mail. The
ropes that bound her wrists were soaked through, but that only made them tighter. No matter how
Brienne turned her hands, she could not slip free. She did not understand who had bound her, or
why. She tried to ask the shadows, but they did not answer. Perhaps they did not hear her.
Perhaps they were not real. Under her layers of wet wool and rusting mail, her skin was flushed
and feverish. She wondered whether all of this was just a fever dream.
She had a horse beneath her, though she could not remember mounting. She lay facedown
across his hindquarters, like a sack of oats. Her wrists and ankles had been lashed together. The
air was damp, the ground cloaked in mist. Her head pounded with every step. She could hear
voices, but all she could see was the earth beneath the horses hooves. There were things broken
inside of her. Her face felt swollen, her cheek was sticky with blood, and every jounce and
bounce send a stab of agony through her arm. She could hear Podrick calling her, as if from far
away. Ser? he kept saying. Ser? My lady? Ser? My lady? His voice was faint and hard to
hear. Finally, there was only silence.
She dreamt she was at Harrenhal, down in the bear pit once again. This time it was Biter facing
her, huge and bald and maggot-white, with weeping sores upon his cheeks. Naked he came,
fondling his member, gnashing his filed teeth together. Brienne fled from him. My sword, she
called. Oathkeeper. Please. The watchers did not answer. Renly was there, with Nimble Dick
and Catelyn Stark. Shagwell, Pyg, and Timeon had come, and the corpses from the trees with
their sunken cheeks, swollen tongues, and empty eye sockets. Brienne wailed in horror at the
sight of them, and Biter grabbed her arm and yanked her close and tore a chunk from her face.
Jaime, she heard herself scream, Jaime.
Even in the depths of dream the pain was there. Her face throbbed. Her shoulder bled.
Breathing hurt. The pain crackled up her arm like lightning. She cried out for a maester.
We have no maester, said a girls voice. Only me.
I am looking for a girl, Brienne remembered. A highborn maid of three-and-ten, with blue eyes
and auburn hair. My lady? she said. Lady Sansa?
A man laughed. She thinks youre Sansa Stark.
She cant go much farther. Shell die.
One less lion. I wont weep.
Brienne heard the sound of someone praying. She thought of Septon Meribald, but all the words
were wrong. The night is dark and full of terrors, and so are dreams.
They were riding through a gloomy wood, a dank, dark, silent place where the pines pressed
close. The ground was soft beneath her horses hooves, and the tracks she left behind filled up
with blood. Beside her rode Lord Renly, Dick Crabb, and Vargo Hoat. Blood ran from Renlys
throat. The Goats torn ear oozed pus. Where are we going? Brienne asked. Where are you

taking me? None of them would answer. How can they answer? All of them are dead. Did that
mean that she was dead as well?
Lord Renly was ahead of her, her sweet smiling king. He was leading her horse through the
trees. Brienne called out to tell him how much she loved him, but when he turned to scowl at her,
she saw that he was not Renly after all. Renly never scowled. He always had a smile for me, she
thought... except...
Cold, her king said, puzzled, and a shadow moved without a man to cast it, and her sweet
lords blood came washing through the green steel of his gorget to drench her hands. He had
been a warm man, but his blood was cold as ice. This is not real, she told herself. This is another
bad dream, and soon Ill wake.
Her mount came to a sudden halt. Rough hands seized hold of her. She saw shafts of red
afternoon light slanting through the branches of a chestnut tree. A horse rooted amongst the dead
leaves after chestnuts, and men moved nearby, talking in quiet voices. Ten, twelve, maybe more.
Brienne did not recognize their faces. She was stretched out on the ground, her back against a
tree trunk. Drink this, mlady, said the girls voice. She lifted a cup to Briennes lips. The taste
was strong and sour. Brienne spat it out. Water, she gasped. Please. Water.
Water wont help the pain. This will. A little. The girl put the cup to Briennes lips again.
It even hurt to drink. Wine ran down her chin and dribbled on her chest. When the cup was
empty the girl filled it from a skin. Brienne sucked it down until she sputtered. No more.
More. You have a broken arm, and some of your ribs is cracked. Two, maybe three.
Biter, Brienne said, remembering the weight of him, the way his knee had slammed into her
chest.
Aye. A real monster, that one.
It all came back to her; lightning above and mud below, the rain pinging softly against the dark
steel of the Hounds helm, the terrible strength in Biters hands. Suddenly she could not stand
being bound. She tried to wrench free of her ropes, but all that did was chafe her worse. Her
wrists were tied too tightly. There was dried blood on the hemp. Is he dead? She trembled.
Biter. Is he dead? She remembered his teeth tearing into the flesh of her face. The thought that
he might still be out there somewhere, breathing, made Brienne want to scream.
Hes dead. Gendry shoved a spearpoint through the back of his neck. Drink, mlady, or Ill
pour it down your throat.
She drank. I am looking for a girl, she whispered, between swallows. She almost said my
sister. A highborn maid of three-and-ten. She has blue eyes and auburn hair.
Im not her.
No. Brienne could see that. The girl was thin to the point of looking starved. She wore her
brown hair in a braid, and her eyes were older than her years. Brown hair, brown eyes, plain.
Willow, six years older. Youre the sister. The innkeep.
I might be. The girl squinted. What if I am?
Do you have a name? Brienne asked. Her stomach gurgled. She was afraid that she might
retch.

Heddle. Same as Willow. Jeyne Heddle.
Jeyne. Untie my hands. Please. Have pity. The ropes are chafing my wrists. Im bleeding.
Its not allowed. Youre to stay bound, till...
... till you stand before mlady. Renly stood behind the girl, pushing his black hair out of his
eyes. Not Renly. Gendry. Mlady means for you to answer for your crimes.
Mlady. The wine was making her head spin. It was hard to think. Stoneheart. Is that who
you mean? Lord Randyll had spoken of her, back at Maidenpool. Lady Stoneheart.
Some call her that. Some call her other things. The Silent Sister. Mother Merciless. The
Hangwoman.
The Hangwoman. When Brienne closed her eyes, she saw the corpses swaying underneath the
bare brown limbs, their faces black and swollen. Suddenly she was desperately afraid. Podrick.
My squire. Where is Podrick? And the others... Ser Hyle, Septon Meribald. Dog. What did you
do with Dog?
Gendry and the girl exchanged a look. Brienne fought to rise, and managed to get one knee
under her before the world began to spin. It was you killed the dog, mlady, she heard Gendry
say, just before the darkness swallowed her again.
Then she was back at the Whispers, standing amongst the ruins and facing Clarence Crabb. He
was huge and fierce, mounted on an aurochs shaggier than he was. The beast pawed the ground
in fury, tearing deep furrows in the earth. Crabbs teeth had been filed into points. When Brienne
went to draw her sword, she found her scabbard empty. No, she cried, as Ser Clarence
charged. It wasnt fair. She could not fight without her magic sword. Ser Jaime had given it to
her. The thought of failing him as she had failed Lord Renly made her want to weep. My sword.
Please, I have to find my sword.
The wench wants her sword back, a voice declared.
And I want Cersei Lannister to suck my cock. So what?
Jaime called it Oathkeeper. Please. But the voices did not listen, and Clarence Crabb
thundered down on her and swept off her head. Brienne spiraled down into a deeper darkness.
She dreamed that she was lying in a boat, her head pillowed on someones lap. There were
shadows all around them, hooded men in mail and leather, paddling them across a foggy river
with muffled oars. She was drenched in sweat, burning, yet somehow shivering too. The fog was
full of faces. Beauty, whispered the willows on the bank, but the reeds said, freak, freak.
Brienne shuddered. Stop, she said. Someone make them stop.
The next time she woke, Jeyne was holding a cup of hot soup to her lips. Onion broth, Brienne
thought. She drank as much of it as she could, until a bit of carrot caught in her throat and made
her choke. Coughing was agony. Easy, the girl said.
Gendry, she wheezed. I have to talk with Gendry.
He turned back at the river, mlady. Hes gone back to his forge, to Willow and the little ones,
to keep them safe.
No one can keep them safe. She began to cough again. Ah, let her choke. Save us a rope. One
of the shadow men shoved the girl aside. He was clad in rusted rings and a studded belt. At his

hip hung longsword and dirk. A yellow greatcloak was plastered to his shoulders, sodden and
filthy. From his shoulders rose a steel dogs head, its teeth bared in a snarl.
No, Brienne moaned. No, youre dead, I killed you.
The Hound laughed. You got that backwards. Itll be me killing you. Id do it now, but mlady
wants to see you hanged.
Hanged. The word sent a jolt of fear through her. She looked at the girl, Jeyne. She is too young
to be so hard. Bread and salt, Brienne gasped. The inn... Septon Meribald fed the children...
we broke bread with your sister...
Guest right dont mean so much as it used to, said the girl. Not since mlady come back
from the wedding. Some o them swinging down by the river figured they was guests too.
We figured different, said the Hound. They wanted beds. We gave em trees.
We got more trees, though, put in another shadow, one-eyed beneath a rusty pothelm. We
always got more trees.
When it was time to mount again, they yanked a leather hood down over her face. There were
no eyeholes. The leather muffled the sounds around her. The taste of onions lingered on her
tongue, sharp as the knowledge of her failure. They mean to hang me. She thought of Jaime, of
Sansa, of her father back on Tarth, and was glad for the hood. It helped hide the tears welling in
her eyes. From time to time she heard the outlaws talking, but she could not make out their
words. After a while she gave herself up to weariness and the slow, steady motion of her horse.
This time she dreamed that she was home again, at Evenfall. Through the tall arched windows
of her lord fathers hall she could see the sun just going down. I was safe here. I was safe.
She was dressed in silk brocade, a quartered gown of blue and red decorated with golden suns
and silver crescent moons. On another girl it might have been a pretty gown, but not on her. She
was twelve, ungainly and uncomfortable, waiting to meet the young knight her father had
arranged for her to marry, a boy six years her senior, sure to be a famous champion one day. She
dreaded his arrival. Her bosom was too small, her hands and feet too big. Her hair kept sticking
up, and there was a pimple nestled in the fold beside her nose. He will bring a rose for you, her
father promised her, but a rose was no good, a rose could not keep her safe. It was a sword she
wanted. Oathkeeper. I have to find the girl. I have to find his honor.
Finally the doors opened, and her betrothed strode into her fathers hall. She tried to greet him
as she had been instructed, only to have blood come pouring from her mouth. She had bitten her
tongue off as she waited. She spat it at the young knights feet, and saw the disgust on his face.
Brienne the Beauty, he said in a mocking tone. I have seen sows more beautiful than you. He
tossed the rose in her face. As he walked away, the griffins on his cloak rippled and blurred and
changed to lions. Jaime! she wanted to cry. Jaime, come back for me! But her tongue lay on the
floor by the rose, drowned in blood.
Brienne woke suddenly, gasping.
She did not know where she was. The air was cold and heavy, and smelled of earth and worms
and mold. She was lying on a pallet beneath a mound of sheepskins, with rock above her head

and roots poking through the walls. The only light came from a tallow candle, smoking in a pool
of melted wax.
She pushed aside the sheepskins. Someone had stripped her of her clothes and armor, she saw.
She was clad in a brown woolen shift, thin but freshly washed. Her forearm had been splinted
and bound up with linen, though. One side of her face felt wet and stiff. When she touched
herself, she found some sort of damp poultice covering her cheek and jaw and ear. Biter...
Brienne got to her feet. Her legs felt weak as water, her head as light as air. Is anyone there?
Something moved in one of the shadowed alcoves behind the candle; an old grey man clad in
rags. The blankets that had covered him slipped to the floor. He sat up and rubbed his eyes.
Lady Brienne? You gave me a fright. I was dreaming.
No, she thought, that was me. What place is this? Is this a dungeon?
A cave. Like rats, we must run back to our holes when the dogs come sniffing after us, and
there are more dogs every day. He was clad in the ragged remains of an old robe, pink and
white. His hair was long and grey and tangled, the loose skin of his cheeks and chin was covered
with coarse stubble. Are you hungry? Could you keep down a cup of milk? Perhaps some bread
and honey?
I want my clothes. My sword. She felt naked without her mail, and she wanted Oathkeeper at
her side. The way out. Show me the way out. The floor of the cave was dirt and stone, rough
beneath the soles of her feet. Even now she felt light-headed, as if she were floating. The
flickering light cast queer shadows. Spirits of the slain, she thought, dancing all about me, hiding
when I turn to look at them. Everywhere she saw holes and cracks and crevices, but there was no
way to know which passages led out, which would take her deeper into the cave, and which went
nowhere. All were black as pitch.
Might I feel your brow, my lady? Her gaolers hand was scarred and hard with callus, yet
strangely gentle. Your fever has broken, he announced, in a voice flavored with the accents of
the Free Cities. Well and good. Just yesterday your flesh felt as if it were on fire. Jeyne feared
that we might lose you.
Jeyne. The tall girl?
The very one. Though she is not so tall as you, my lady. Long Jeyne, the men call her. It was
she who set your arm and splinted it, as well as any maester. She did what she could for your
face as well, washing out the wounds with boiled ale to stop the mortification. Even so... a
human bite is a filthy thing. That is where the fever came from, I am certain. The grey man
touched her bandaged face. We had to cut away some of the flesh. Your face will not be pretty,
I fear.
It has never been pretty. Scars, you mean?
My lady, that creature chewed off half your cheek.
Brienne could not help but flinch. Every knight has battle scars, Ser Goodwin had warned her,
when she asked him to teach her the sword. Is that what you want, child? Her old master-at-arms
had been talking about sword cuts, though; he could never have anticipated Biters pointed teeth.
Why set my bones and wash my wounds if you only mean to hang me?

Why indeed? He glanced at the candle, as if he could no longer bear to look at her. You
fought bravely at the inn, they tell me. Lem should not have left the crossroads. He was told to
stay close, hidden, to come at once if he saw smoke rising from the chimney... but when word
reached him that the Mad Dog of Saltpans had been seen making his way north along the Green
Fork, he took the bait. We have been hunting that lot for so long... still, he ought to have known
better. As it was, it was half a day before he realized that the mummers had used a stream to hide
their tracks and doubled back behind him, and then he lost more time circling around a column
of Frey knights. If not for you, only corpses might have remained at the inn by the time that Lem
and his men got back. That was why Jeyne dressed your wounds, mayhaps. Whatever else you
may have done, you won those wounds honorably, in the best of causes.
Whatever else you may have done. What is it that you think Ive done? she said. Who are
you?
We were kings men when we began, the man told her, but kings men must have a king,
and we have none. We were brothers too, but now our brotherhood is broken. I do not know who
we are, if truth be told, nor where we might be going. I only know the road is dark. The fires
have not shown me what lies at its end.
I know where it ends. I have seen the corpses in the trees. Fires, Brienne repeated. All at once
she understood. You are the Myrish priest. The red wizard.
He looked down at his ragged robes, and smiled ruefully. The pink pretender, rather. I am
Thoros, late of Myr, aye... a bad priest and a worse wizard.
You ride with the Dondarrion. The lightning lord.
Lightning comes and goes and then is seen no more. So too with men. Lord Berics fire has
gone out of this world, I fear. A grimmer shadow leads us in his place.
The Hound?
The priest pursed his lips. The Hound is dead and buried.
I saw him. In the woods.
A fever dream, my lady.
He said that he would hang me.
Even dreams can lie. My lady, how long has it been since you have eaten? Surely you are
famished?
She was, she realized. Her belly felt hollow. Food... food would be welcome, thank you.
A meal, then. Sit. We will talk more, but first a meal. Wait here. Thoros lit a taper from the
sagging candle, and vanished into a black hole beneath a ledge of rock. Brienne found herself
alone in the small cave. For how long, though?
She prowled the chamber, looking for a weapon. Any sort of weapon would have served; a
staff, a club, a dagger. She found only rocks. One fit her fist nicely... but she remembered the
Whispers, and what happened when Shagwell tried to pit a stone against a knife. When she heard
the priests returning footsteps, she let the rock fall to the cavern floor and resumed her seat.
Thoros had bread and cheese and a bowl of stew. I am sorry, he said. The last of the milk
had soured, and the honey is all gone. Food grows scant. Still, this will fill you.

The stew was cold and greasy, the bread hard, the cheese harder. Brienne had never eaten
anything half so good. Are my companions here? she asked the priest, as she was spooning up
the last of the stew.
The septon was set free to go upon his way. There was no harm in him. The others are here,
awaiting judgment.
Judgment? She frowned. Podrick Payne is just a boy.
He says he is a squire.
You know how boys will boast.
The Imps squire. He has fought in battles, by his own admission. He has even killed, to hear
him tell it.
A boy, she said again. Have pity.
My lady, Thoros said, I do not doubt that kindness and mercy and forgiveness can still be
found somewhere in these Seven Kingdoms, but do not look for them here. This is a cave, not a
temple. When men must live like rats in the dark beneath the earth, they soon run out of pity, as
they do of milk and honey.
And justice? Can that be found in caves?
Justice. Thoros smiled wanly. I remember justice. It had a pleasant taste. Justice was what
we were about when Beric led us, or so we told ourselves. We were kings men, knights, and
heroes... but some knights are dark and full of terror, my lady. War makes monsters of us all.
Are you saying you are monsters?
I am saying we are human. You are not the only one with wounds, Lady Brienne. Some of my
brothers were good men when this began. Some were... less good, shall we say? Though there
are those who say it does not matter how a man begins, but only how he ends. I suppose it is the
same for women. The priest got to his feet. Our time together is at an end, I fear. I hear my
brothers coming. Our lady sends for you.
Brienne heard their footsteps and saw torchlight flickering in the passage. You told me she had
gone to Fairmarket.
And so she had. She returned whilst we were sleeping. She never sleeps herself.
I will not be afraid, she told herself, but it was too late for that. I will not let them see my fear,
she promised herself instead. There were four of them, hard men with haggard faces, clad in mail
and scale and leather. She recognized one of them; the man with one eye, from her dreams.
The biggest of the four wore a stained and tattered yellow cloak. Enjoy the food? he asked. I
hope so. Its the last food youre ever like to eat. He was brown-haired, bearded, brawny, with a
broken nose that had healed badly. I know this man, Brienne thought. You are the Hound.
He grinned. His teeth were awful; crooked, and streaked brown with rot. I suppose I am.
Seeing as how mlady went and killed the last one. He turned his head and spat.
She remembered lightning flashing, the mud beneath her feet. It was Rorge I killed. He took
the helm from Cleganes grave, and you stole it off his corpse.
I didnt hear him objecting.

Thoros sucked in his breath in dismay. Is this true? A dead mans helm? Have we fallen that
low?
The big man scowled at him. Its good steel.
There is nothing good about that helm, nor the men who wore it, said the red priest. Sandor
Clegane was a man in torment, and Rorge a beast in human skin.
Im not them.
Then why show the world their face? Savage, snarling, twisted... is that who you would be,
Lem?
The sight of it will make my foes afraid.
The sight of it makes me afraid.
Close your eyes, then. The man in the yellow cloak made a sharp gesture. Bring the whore.
Brienne did not resist. There were four of them, and she was weak and wounded, naked beneath
the woolen shift. She had to bend her neck to keep from hitting her head as they marched her
through the twisting passage. The way ahead rose sharply, turning twice before emerging in a
much larger cavern full of outlaws.
A fire pit had been dug into the center of the floor, and the air was blue with smoke. Men
clustered near the flames, warming themselves against the chill of the cave. Others stood along
the walls or sat cross-legged on straw pallets. There were women too, and even a few children
peering out from behind their mothers skirts. The one face Brienne knew belonged to Long
Jeyne Heddle.
A trestle table had been set up across the cave, in a cleft in the rock. Behind it sat a woman all
in grey, cloaked and hooded. In her hands was a crown, a bronze circlet ringed by iron swords.
She was studying it, her fingers stroking the blades as if to test their sharpness. Her eyes
glimmered under her hood.
Grey was the color of the silent sisters, the handmaidens of the Stranger. Brienne felt a shiver
climb her spine. Stoneheart.
Mlady, said the big man. Here she is.
Aye, added the one-eyed man. The Kingslayers whore.
She flinched. Why would you call me that?
If I had a silver stag for every time you said his name, Id be as rich as your friends the
Lannisters.
That was only... you do not understand...
Dont we, though? The big man laughed. I think we might. Theres a stink of lion about you,
lady.
Thats not so.
Another of the outlaws stepped forward, a younger man in a greasy sheepskin jerkin. In his
hand was Oathkeeper. This says it is. His voice was frosted with the accents of the north. He
slid the sword from its scabbard and placed it in front of Lady Stoneheart. In the light from the
firepit the red and black ripples in the blade almost seem to move, but the woman in grey had
eyes only for the pommel: a golden lions head, with ruby eyes that shone like two red stars.

There is this as well. Thoros of Myr drew a parchment from his sleeve, and put it down next
to the sword. It bears the boy kings seal and says the bearer is about his business.
Lady Stoneheart set the sword aside to read the letter.
The sword was given me for a good purpose, said Brienne. Ser Jaime swore an oath to
Catelyn Stark...
... before his friends cut her throat for her, that must have been, said the big man in the yellow
cloak. We all know about the Kingslayer and his oaths.
It is no good, Brienne realized. No words of mine will sway them. She plunged ahead despite
that. He promised Lady Catelyn her daughters, but by the time we reached Kings Landing they
were gone. Jaime sent me out to seek the Lady Sansa...
... and if you had found the girl, asked the young northman, what were you to do with her?
Protect her. Take her somewhere safe.
The big man laughed. Wheres that? Cerseis dungeon?
No.
Deny it all you want. That sword says youre a liar. Are we supposed to believe the Lannisters
are handing out gold and ruby swords to foes? That the Kingslayer meant for you to hide the girl
from his own twin? I suppose the paper with the boy kings seal was just in case you needed to
wipe your arse? And then theres the company you keep... The big man turned and beckoned,
the ranks of outlaws parted, and two more captives were brought forth. The boy was the Imps
own squire, mlady, he said to Lady Stoneheart. Tother is one of Randyll Bloody Tarlys
bloody household knights.
Hyle Hunt had been beaten so badly that his face was swollen almost beyond recognition. He
stumbled as they shoved him, and almost fell. Podrick caught him by the arm. Ser, the boy said
miserably, when he saw Brienne. My lady, I mean. Sorry.
You have nothing to be sorry for. Brienne turned to Lady Stoneheart. Whatever treachery
you think I may have done, my lady, Podrick and Ser Hyle were no part of it.
Theyre lions, said the one-eyed man. Thats enough. I say they hang. Tarlys hanged a
score o ours, past time we strung up some o his.
Ser Hyle gave Brienne a faint smile. My lady, he said, you should have wed me when I
made my offer. Now I fear youre doomed to die a maid, and me a poor man.
Let them go, Brienne pleaded.
The woman in grey gave no answer. She studied the sword, the parchment, the bronze-and-iron
crown. Finally she reached up under her jaw and grasped her neck, as if she meant to throttle
herself. Instead she spoke... Her voice was halting, broken, tortured. The sound seemed to come
from her throat, part croak, part wheeze, part death rattle. The language of the damned, thought
Brienne. I dont understand. What did she say?
She asked the name of this blade of yours, said the young northman in the sheepskin jerkin.
Oathkeeper, Brienne answered.
The woman in grey hissed through her fingers. Her eyes were two red pits burning in the
shadows. She spoke again.

No, she says. Call it Oathbreaker, she says. It was made for treachery and murder. She names
it False Friend. Like you.
To whom have I been false?
To her, the northman said. Can it be that my lady has forgotten that you once swore her your
service?
There was only one woman that the Maid of Tarth had ever sworn to serve. That cannot be,
she said. Shes dead.
Death and guest right, muttered Long Jeyne Heddle. They dont mean so much as they used
to, neither one.
Lady Stoneheart lowered her hood and unwound the grey wool scarf from her face. Her hair
was dry and brittle, white as bone. Her brow was mottled green and grey, spotted with the brown
blooms of decay. The flesh of her face clung in ragged strips from her eyes down to her jaw.
Some of the rips were crusted with dried blood, but others gaped open to reveal the skull
beneath.
Her face, Brienne thought. Her face was so strong and handsome, her skin so smooth and soft.
Lady Catelyn? Tears filled her eyes. They said... they said that you were dead.
She is, said Thoros of Myr. The Freys slashed her throat from ear to ear. When we found her
by the river she was three days dead. Harwin begged me to give her the kiss of life, but it had
been too long. I would not do it, so Lord Beric put his lips to hers instead, and the flame of life
passed from him to her. And... she rose. May the Lord of Light protect us. She rose.
Am I dreaming still? Brienne wondered. Is this another nightmare born from Biters teeth? I
never betrayed her. Tell her that. I swear it by the Seven. I swear it by my sword.
The thing that had been Catelyn Stark took hold of her throat again, fingers pinching at the
ghastly long slash in her neck, and choked out more sounds. Words are wind, she says, the
northman told Brienne. She says that you must prove your faith.
How? asked Brienne.
With your sword. Oathkeeper, you call it? Then keep your oath to her, milady says.
What does she want of me?
She wants her son alive, or the men who killed him dead, said the big man. She wants to
feed the crows, like they did at the Red Wedding. Freys and Boltons, aye. Well give her those,
as many as she likes. All she asks from you is Jaime Lannister.
Jaime. The name was a knife, twisting in her belly. Lady Catelyn, I... you do not understand,
Jaime... he saved me from being raped when the Bloody Mummers took us, and later he came
back for me, he leapt into the bear pit empty-handed... I swear to you, he is not the man he was.
He sent me after Sansa to keep her safe, he could not have had a part in the Red Wedding.
Lady Catelyns fingers dug deep into her throat, and the words came rattling out, choked and
broken, a stream as cold as ice. The northman said, She says that you must choose. Take the
sword and slay the Kingslayer, or be hanged for a betrayer. The sword or the noose, she says.
Choose, she says. Choose.

Brienne remembered her dream, waiting in her fathers hall for the boy she was to marry. In the
dream she had bitten off her tongue. My mouth was full of blood. She took a ragged breath and
said, I will not make that choice.
There was a long silence. Then Lady Stoneheart spoke again. This time Brienne understood her
words. There were only two. Hang them, she croaked.
As you command, mlady, said the big man.
They bound Briennes wrists with rope again and led her from the cavern, up a twisting stony
path to the surface. It was morning outside, she was surprised to see. Shafts of pale dawn light
were slanting through the trees. So many trees to choose from, she thought. They will not need to
take us far.
Nor did they. Beneath a crooked willow, the outlaws slipped a noose about her neck, jerked it
tight, and tossed the other end of the rope over a limb. Hyle Hunt and Podrick Payne were given
elms. Ser Hyle was shouting that he would kill Jaime Lannister, but the Hound cuffed him across
the face and shut him up. He had donned the helm again. If you got crimes to confess to your
gods, this would be the time to say them.
Podrick has never harmed you. My father will ransom him. Tarth is called the sapphire isle.
Send Podrick with my bones to Evenfall, and youll have sapphires, silver, whatever you want.
I want my wife and daughter back, said the Hound. Can your father give me that? If not, he
can get buggered. The boy will rot beside you. Wolves will gnaw your bones.
Do you mean to hang her, Lem? asked the one-eyed man. Or do you figure to talk the bitch
to death?
The Hound snatched the end of the rope from the man holding it. Lets see if she can dance,
he said, and gave a yank.
Brienne felt the hemp constricting, digging into her skin, jerking her chin upward. Ser Hyle was
cursing them eloquently, but not the boy. Podrick never lifted his eyes, not even when his feet
were jerked up off the ground. If this is another dream, it is time for me to awaken. If this is real,
it is time for me to die. All she could see was Podrick, the noose around his thin neck, his legs
twitching. Her mouth opened. Pod was kicking, choking, dying. Brienne sucked the air in
desperately, even as the rope was strangling her. Nothing had ever hurt so much.
She screamed a word.

CERSEI
Septa Moelle was a white-haired harridan with a face as sharp as an axe and lips pursed
in perpetual disapproval. This one still has her maidenhead, Ill wager, Cersei thought, though by
now its hard and stiff as boiled leather. Six of the High Sparrows knights escorted her, with the
rainbow sword of their reborn order emblazoned on their kite shields.
Septa. Cersei sat beneath the Iron Throne, clad in green silk and golden lace. Tell his High
Holiness that we are vexed with him. He presumes too much. Emeralds glimmered on her
fingers and in her golden hair. The eyes of court and city were upon her, and she meant for them
to see Lord Tywins daughter. By the time this mummers farce was done they would know they
had but one true queen. But first we must dance the dance and never miss a step. Lady
Margaery is my sons true and gentle wife, his helpmate and consort. His High Holiness had no
cause to lay his hands upon her person, or to confine her and her young cousins, who are so dear
to all of us. I demand that he release them.
Septa Moelles stern expression did not flicker. I shall convey Your Graces words to His High
Holiness, but it grieves me to say that the young queen and her ladies cannot be released until
and unless their innocence has been proved.
Innocence? Why, you need only look upon their sweet young faces to see how innocent they
are.
A sweet face oft hides a sinners heart.
Lord Merryweather spoke up from the council table. What offense have these young maids
been accused of, and by whom?
The septa said, Megga Tyrell and Elinor Tyrell stand accused of lewdness, fornication, and
conspiracy to commit high treason. Alla Tyrell has been charged with witnessing their shame
and helping them conceal it. All this Queen Margaery has also been accused of, as well as
adultery and high treason.
Cersei put a hand to her breast. Tell me who is spreading such calumnies about my good-
daughter! I do not believe a word of this. My sweet son loves Lady Margaery with all his heart,
she could never have been so cruel as to play him false.
The accuser is a knight of your own household. Ser Osney Kettleblack has confessed his
carnal knowledge of the queen to the High Septon himself, before the altar of the Father.
At the council table Harys Swyft gasped, and Grand Maester Pycelle turned away. A buzz filled
the air, as if a thousand wasps were loose in the throne room. Some of the ladies in the galleries
began to slip away, followed by a stream of petty lords and knights from the back of the hall.
The gold cloaks let them go, but the queen had instructed Ser Osfryd to make note of all who
fled. Suddenly the Tyrell rose does not smell so sweet.
Ser Osney is young and lusty, I will grant you, the queen said, but a faithful knight for all
that. If he says that he was part of this... no, it cannot be. Margaery is a maiden!
She is not. I examined her myself, at the behest of His High Holiness. Her maidenhead is not
intact. Septa Aglantine and Septa Melicent will say the same, as will Queen Margaerys own

septa, Nysterica, who has been confined to a penitents cell for her part in the queens shame.
Lady Megga and Lady Elinor were examined as well. Both were found to have been broken.
The wasps were growing so loud that the queen could hardly hear herself think. I do hope the
little queen and her cousins enjoyed those rides of theirs.
Lord Merryweather thumped his fist on the table. Lady Margaery had sworn solemn oaths
attesting to her maidenhood, to Her Grace the queen and her late father. Many here bore witness.
Lord Tyrell has also testified to her innocence, as has the Lady Olenna, whom we all know to be
above reproach. Would you have us believe that all of these noble people lied to us?
Perhaps they were deceived as well, my lord, said Septa Moelle. I cannot speak to this. I can
only swear to the truth of what I discovered for myself when I examined the queen.
The picture of this sour old crone poking her wrinkled fingers up Margaerys little pink cunt
was so droll that Cersei almost laughed. We insist that His High Holiness allow our own
maesters to examine my good-daughter, to determine if there is any shred of truth to these
slanders. Grand Maester Pycelle, you shall accompany Septa Moelle back to Beloved Baelors
Sept, and return to us with the truth about our Margaerys maidenhead.
Pycelle had gone the color of curdled white. At council meetings the wretched old fool cannot
say enough, but now that I need a few words from him he has lost the power of speech, the queen
thought, before the old man finally came out with, There is no need for me to examine her... her
privy parts. His voice was a quaver. I grieve to say... Queen Margaery is no maiden. She has
required me to make her moon tea, not once, but many times.
The uproar that followed that was all that Cersei Lannister could ever have hoped for.
Even the royal herald beating on the floor with his staff did little to quell the noise. The queen
let it wash over her for a few heartbeats, savoring the sounds of the little queens disgrace. When
it had gone on long enough, she rose stone-faced and commanded that the gold cloaks clear the
hall. Margaery Tyrell is done, she thought, exulting. Her white knights fell in around her as she
made her exit through the kings door behind the Iron Throne; Boros Blount, Meryn Trant, and
Osmund Kettleblack, the last of the Kingsguard still remaining in the city.
Moon Boy was standing beside the door, holding his rattle in his hand and gaping at the
confusion with his big round eyes. A fool he may be, but he wears his folly honestly. Maggy the
Frog should have been in motley too, for all she knew about the morrow. Cersei prayed the old
fraud was screaming down in hell. The younger queen whose coming shed foretold was
finished, and if that prophecy could fail, so could the rest. No golden shrouds, no valonqar, I am
free of your croaking malice at last.
The remnants of her small council followed her out. Harys Swyft appeared dazed. He stumbled
at the door and might have fallen if Aurane Waters had not caught him by the arm. Even Orton
Merryweather seemed anxious. The smallfolk are fond of the little queen, he said. They will
not take well to this. I fear what might happen next, Your Grace.
Lord Merryweather is right, said Lord Waters. If it please Your Grace, I will launch the rest
of our new dromonds. The sight of them upon the Blackwater with King Tommens banner

flying from their masts will remind the city who rules here, and keep them safe should the mobs
decide to run riot again.
He left the rest unspoken; once on the Blackwater, his dromonds could stop Mace Tyrell from
bringing his army back across the river, just as Tyrion had once stopped Stannis. Highgarden had
no sea power of its own this side of Westeros. They relied upon the Redwyne fleet, presently on
its way back to the Arbor.
A prudent measure, the queen announced. Until this storm has passed, I want your ships
crewed and on the water.
Ser Harys Swyft was so pale and damp he looked about to faint. When word of this reaches
Lord Tyrell, his fury will know no bounds. There will be blood in the streets...
The knight of the yellow chicken, Cersei mused. You ought to take a worm for your sigil, ser. A
chicken is too bold for you. If Mace Tyrell will not even assault Storms End, how do you
imagine that he would ever dare attack the gods? When he was done blathering she said, It must
not come to blood, and I mean to see that it does not. I will go to Baelors Sept myself to speak
to Queen Margaery and the High Septon. Tommen loves them both, I know, and would want me
to make peace between them.
Peace? Ser Harys dabbed at his brow with a velvet sleeve. If peace is possible... that is very
brave of you.
Some sort of trial may be necessary, said the queen, to disprove these base calumnies and
lies and show the world that our sweet Margaery is the innocent we all know her to be.
Aye, said Merryweather, but this High Septon may want to try the queen himself, as the
Faith once tried men of old.
I hope so, Cersei thought. Such a court was not like to look with favor on treasonous queens
who spread their legs for singers and profaned the Maidens holy rites to hide their shame. The
important thing is to find the truth, I am sure we all agree, she said. And now, my lords, you
must excuse me. I must go see the king. He should not be alone at such a time.
Tommen was fishing for cats when his mother returned to him. Dorcas had made him a mouse
with scraps of fur and tied it on a long string at the end of an old fishing pole. The kittens loved
to chase it, and the boy liked nothing better than jerking it about the floor as they pounced after
it. He seemed surprised when Cersei gathered him up in her arms and kissed him on his brow.
Whats that for, Mother? Why are you crying?
Because youre safe, she wanted to tell him. Because no harm will ever come to you. You are
mistaken. A lion never cries. There would be time later to tell him about Margaery and her
cousins. There are some warrants that I need you to sign.
For the kings sake, the queen had left the names off the arrest warrants. Tommen signed them
blank, and pressed his seal into the warm wax happily, as he always did. Afterward she sent him
off with Jocelyn Swyft.
Ser Osfryd Kettleblack arrived as the ink was drying. Cersei had written in the names herself:
Ser Tallad the Tall, Jalabhar Xho, Hamish the Harper, Hugh Clifton, Mark Mullendore, Bayard

Norcross, Lambert Turnberry, Horas Redwyne, Hobber Redwyne, and a certain churl named
Wat, who called himself the Blue Bard.
So many. Ser Osfryd shuffled through the warrants, as wary of the words as if they had been
roaches crawling across the parchment. None of the Kettleblacks could read.
Ten. You have six thousand gold cloaks. Sufficient for ten, I would think. Some of the clever
ones may have fled, if the rumors reached their ears in time. If so, it makes no matter, their
absence only makes them look that much more guilty. Ser Tallad is a bit of an oaf and may try to
resist you. See that he does not die before confessing, and do no harm to any of the others. A few
may well be innocent. It was important that the Redwyne twins be found to have been falsely
accused. That would demonstrate the fairness of the judgments against the others.
Well have them all before the sun comes up, Your Grace. Ser Osfryd hesitated. Theres a
crowd gathering outside the door of Baelors Sept.
What sort of crowd? Anything unexpected made her wary. She remembered what Lord
Waters had said about the riots. I had not considered how the smallfolk might react to this.
Margaery has been their little pet. How many?
A hundred or so. Theyre shouting for the High Septon to release the little queen. We can send
them running, if you like.
No. Let them shout until theyre hoarse, it will not sway the Sparrow. He only listens to the
gods. There was a certain irony in His High Holiness having an angry mob encamped upon his
doorstep, since just such a mob had raised him to the crystal crown. Which he promptly sold.
The Faith has its own knights now. Let them defend the sept. Oh, and close the city gates as
well. No one is to enter or leave Kings Landing without my leave, until all this is done and
settled.
As you command, Your Grace. Ser Osfryd bowed and went off to find someone to read the
warrants to him.
By the time the sun went down that day, all of the accused traitors were in custody. Hamish the
Harper had collapsed when they came for him, and Ser Tallad the Tall had wounded three gold
cloaks before the others overwhelmed him. Cersei ordered that the Redwyne twins be given
comfortable chambers in a tower. The rest went down to the dungeons.
Hamish is having difficulty breathing, Qyburn informed her when he came to call that night.
He is calling for a maester.
Tell him he can have one as soon as he confesses. She thought a moment. He is too old to
have been amongst the lovers, but no doubt he was made to play and sing for Margaery whilst
she was entertaining other men. We will need details.
I shall help him to remember them, Your Grace.
The next day, Lady Merryweather helped Cersei dress for their visit to the little queen.
Nothing too rich or colorful, she said. Something suitably devout and drab for the High
Septon. Hes like to make me pray with him.
In the end, she chose a soft woolen dress that covered her from throat to ankle, with only a few
small vines embroidered on the bodice and the sleeves in golden thread to soften the severity of

its lines. Even better, brown would help conceal the dirt if she was made to kneel. Whilst I am
comforting my good-daughter you shall speak with the three cousins, she told Taena. Win Alla
if you can, but be careful what you say. The gods may not be the only ones listening.
Jaime always said that the hardest part of any battle is just before, waiting for the carnage to
begin. When she stepped outside, Cersei saw that the sky was grey and bleak. She could not take
the risk of being caught in a downpour and arriving at Baelors Sept soaked and bedraggled. That
meant the litter. For her escort, she took ten Lannister house guards and Boros Blount.
Margaerys mob may not have the wit to tell one Kettleblack from another, she told Ser
Osmund, and I cannot have you cutting through the commons. Best we keep you out of sight for
a time.
As they made their way across Kings Landing, Taena had a sudden doubt. This trial, she
said, in a quiet voice, what if Margaery demands that her guilt or innocence be determined by
wager of battle?
A smile brushed Cerseis lips. As queen, her honor must be defended by a knight of the
Kingsguard. Why, every child in Westeros knows how Prince Aemon the Dragonknight
championed his sister Queen Naerys against Ser Morghils accusations. With Ser Loras so
gravely wounded, though, I fear Prince Aemons part must fall to one of his Sworn Brothers.
She shrugged. Who, though? Ser Arys and Ser Balon are far away in Dorne, Jaime is off at
Riverrun, and Ser Osmund is the brother of the man accusing her, which leaves only... oh,
dear...
Boros Blount and Meryn Trant. Lady Taena laughed.
Yes, and Ser Meryn has been feeling ill of late. Remind me to tell him that when we return to
the castle.
I shall, my sweet. Taena took her hand and kissed it. I pray that I never offend you. You are
terrible when roused.
Any mother would do the same to protect her children, said Cersei. When do you mean to
bring that boy of yours to court? Russell, was that his name? He could train with Tommen.
That would thrill the boy, I know... but things are so uncertain just now, I thought it best to
wait until the danger passed.
Soon enough, promised Cersei. Send word to Longtable and have Russell pack his best
doublet and his wooden sword. A new young friend will be just the thing to help Tommen forget
his loss, after Margaerys little head has rolled.
They descended from the litter under Blessed Baelors statue. The queen was pleased to see that
the bones and filth had been cleaned away. Ser Osfryd had told it true; the crowd was neither as
numerous nor as unruly as the sparrows had been. They stood about in small clumps, gazing
sullenly at the doors of the Great Sept, where a line of novice septons had been drawn up with
quarterstaffs in their hands. No steel, Cersei noted. That was either very wise or very stupid, she
was not sure which.
No one made any attempt to hinder her. Smallfolk and novices alike parted as they passed.
Once inside the doors, they were met by three knights in the Hall of Lamps, each clad in the

rainbow-striped robes of the Warriors Sons. I am here to see my good-daughter, Cersei told
them.
His High Holiness has been expecting you. I am Ser Theodan the True, formerly Ser Theodan
Wells. If Your Grace will come with me.
The High Sparrow was on his knees, as ever. This time he was praying before the Fathers altar.
Nor did he break off his prayer when the queen approached, but made her wait impatiently until
he had finished. Only then did he rise and bow to her. Your Grace. This is a sad day.
Very sad. Do we have your leave to speak with Margaery and her cousins? She chose a meek
and humble manner; with this man, that was like to work the best.
If that is your wish. Come to me afterward, my child. We must pray together, you and I.
The little queen had been confined atop one of the Great Septs slender towers. Her cell was
eight feet long and six feet wide, with no furnishings but a straw-stuffed pallet and a bench for
prayer, a ewer of water, a copy of The Seven-Pointed Star, and a candle to read it by. The only
window was hardly wider than an arrow slit.
Cersei found Margaery barefoot and shivering, clad in the roughspun shift of a novice sister.
Her locks were all a tangle, and her feet were filthy. They took my clothes from me, the little
queen told her once they were alone. I wore a gown of ivory lace, with freshwater pearls on the
bodice, but the septas laid their hands on me and stripped me to the skin. My cousins too. Megga
sent one septa crashing into the candles and set her robe afire. I fear for Alla, though. She went
as white as milk, too frightened even to cry.
Poor child. There were no chairs, so Cersei sat beside the little queen on her pallet. Lady
Taena has gone to speak with her, to let her know that she is not forgotten.
He will not even let me see them, fumed Margaery. He keeps each of us apart from the
others. Until you came, I was allowed no visitors but septas. One comes every hour to ask if I
wish to confess my fornications. They will not even let me sleep. They wake me to demand
confessions. Last night I confessed to Septa Unella that I wished to scratch her eyes out.
A shame you did not do it, Cersei thought. Blinding some poor old septa would certainly
persuade the High Sparrow of your guilt. They are questioning your cousins the same way.
Damn them, then, said Margaery. Damn them all to seven hells. Alla is gentle and shy, how
can they do this to her? And Megga... she laughs as loud as a dockside whore, I know, but inside
shes still just a little girl. I love them all, and they love me. If this sparrow thinks to make them
lie about me...
They stand accused as well, I fear. All three.
My cousins? Margaery paled. Alla and Megga are hardly more than children. Your Grace,
this... this is obscene. Will you take us out of here?
Would that I could. Her voice was full of sorrow. His High Holiness has his new knights
guarding you. To free you I would need to send the gold cloaks and profane this holy place with
killing. Cersei took Margaerys hand in hers. I have not been idle, though. I have gathered up
all those that Ser Osney named as your lovers. They will tell His High Holiness of your
innocence, I am certain, and swear to it at your trial.

Trial? There was real fear in the girls voice now. Must there be a trial?
How else will you prove your innocence? Cersei gave Margaerys hand a reassuring squeeze.
It is your right to decide the manner of the trial, to be sure. You are the queen. The knights of
the Kingsguard are sworn to defend you.
Margaery understood at once. A trial by battle? Loras is hurt, though, elsewise he...
He has six brothers.
Margaery stared at her, then pulled her hand away. Is that a jape? Boros is a craven, Meryn is
old and slow, your brother is maimed, the other two are off in Dorne, and Osmund is a bloody
Kettleblack. Loras has two brothers, not six. If theres to be a trial by battle, I want Garlan as my
champion.
Ser Garlan is not a member of the Kingsguard, the queen said. When the queens honor is at
issue, law and custom require that her champion be one of the kings sworn seven. The High
Septon will insist, I fear. I will make certain of it.
Margaery did not answer at once, but her brown eyes narrowed in suspicion. Blount or Trant,
she said at last. It would have to be one of them. Youd like that, wouldnt you? Osney
Kettleblack would cut either one to pieces.
Seven hells. Cersei donned a look of hurt. You wrong me, daughter. All I want
is your son, all for yourself. He will never have a wife that you dont hate. And I am not
your daughter, thank the gods. Leave me.
You are being foolish. I am only here to help you.
To help me to my grave. I asked for you to leave. Will you make me call my gaolers and have
you dragged away, you vile, scheming, evil bitch?
Cersei gathered up her skirts and dignity. This must be very frightening for you. I shall forgive
those words. Here, as at court, one never knew who might be listening. I would be afraid as
well, in your place. Grand Maester Pycelle has admitted providing you with moon tea, and your
Blue Bard... if I were you, my lady, I would pray to the Crone for wisdom and to the Mother for
her mercy. I fear you may soon be in dire need of both.
Four shriveled septas escorted the queen down the tower steps. Each of the crones seemed more
feeble than the last. When they reached the ground they continued down, into the heart of
Visenyas Hill. The steps ended well below the earth, where a line of flickering torches lit a long
hallway.
She found the High Septon waiting for her in a small seven-sided audience chamber. The room
was sparse and plain, with bare stone walls, a rough-hewn table, three chairs, and a prayer bench.
The faces of the Seven had been carved into the walls. Cersei thought the carvings crude and
ugly, but there was a certain power to them, especially about the eyes, orbs of onyx, malachite,
and yellow moonstone that somehow made the faces come alive.
You spoke with the queen, the High Septon said.
She resisted the urge to say, I am the queen. I did.
All men sin, even kings and queens. I have sinned myself, and been forgiven. Without
confession, though, there can be no forgiveness. The queen will not confess.

Perhaps she is innocent.
She is not. Holy septas have examined her, and testify that her maidenhead is broken. She has
drunk of moon tea, to murder the fruit of her fornications in her womb. An anointed knight has
sworn upon his sword to having carnal knowledge of her and two of her three cousins. Others
have lain with her as well, he says, and names many names of men both great and humble.
My gold cloaks have taken all of them to the dungeons, Cersei assured him. Only one has
yet been questioned, a singer called the Blue Bard. What he had to say was disturbing. Even so, I
pray that when my good-daughter is brought to trial, her innocence may yet be proved. She
hesitated. Tommen loves his little queen so much, Your Holiness, I fear it might be hard for him
or his lords to judge her justly. Perhaps the Faith should conduct the trial?
The High Sparrow steepled his thin hands. I have had the selfsame thought, Your Grace. Just
as Maegor the Cruel once took the swords from the Faith, so Jaehaerys the Conciliator deprived
us of the scales of judgment. Yet who is truly fit to judge a queen, save the Seven Above and the
godsworn below? A sacred court of seven judges shall sit upon this case. Three shall be of your
female sex. A maiden, a mother, and a crone. Who could be more suited to judge the wickedness
of women?
That would be for the best. To be sure, Margaery does have the right to demand that her guilt
or innocence be proven by wager of battle. If so, her champion must be one of Tommens
Seven.
The knights of the Kingsguard have served as the rightful champions of king and queen since
the days of Aegon the Conqueror. Crown and Faith speak as one on this.
Cersei covered her face with her hands, as if in grief. When she raised her head again, a tear
glistened in one eye. These are sad days indeed, she said, but I am pleased to find us so much
in agreement. If Tommen were here I know he would thank you. Together you and I must find
the truth.
We shall.
I must return to the castle. With your leave, I will take Ser Osney Kettleblack back with me.
The small council will want to question him, and hear his accusations for themselves.
No, said the High Septon.
It was only a word, one little word, but to Cersei it felt like a splash of icy water in the face. She
blinked, and her certainty flickered, just a little. Ser Osney will be held securely, I promise
you.
He is held securely here. Come. I will show you.
Cersei could feel the eyes of the Seven staring at her, eyes of jade and malachite and onyx, and
a sudden shiver of fear went through her, cold as ice. I am the queen, she told herself. Lord
Tywins daughter. Reluctantly, she followed.
Ser Osney was not far. The chamber was dark, and closed by a heavy iron door. The High
Septon produced the key to open it, and took a torch down from the wall to light the room
within. After you, Your Grace.

Within, Osney Kettleblack hung naked from the ceiling, swinging from a pair of heavy iron
chains. He had been whipped. His back and shoulders been laid almost bare, and cuts and welts
crisscrossed his legs and arse as well.
The queen could hardly stand to look at him. She turned back to the High Septon. What have
you done?
We have sought after the truth, most earnestly.
He told you the truth. He came to you of his own free will and confessed his sins.
Aye. He did that. I have heard many men confess, Your Grace, but seldom have I heard a man
so pleased to be so guilty.
You whipped him!
There can be no penance without pain. No man should spare himself the scourge, as I told Ser
Osney. I seldom feel so close to god as when I am being whipped for mine own wickedness,
though my darkest sins are no wise near as black as his.
B-but, she sputtered, you preach the Mothers mercy...
Ser Osney shall taste of that sweet milk in the afterlife. In The Seven-Pointed Star it is written
that all sins may be forgiven, but crimes must still be punished. Osney Kettleblack is guilty of
treason and murder, and the wages of treason are death.
He is just a priest, he cannot do this. It is not for the Faith to condemn a man to death,
whatever his offense.
Whatever his offense. The High Septon repeated the words slowly, weighing them. Strange
to say, Your Grace, the more diligently we applied the scourge, the more Ser Osneys offenses
seemed to change. He would now have us believe that he never touched Margaery Tyrell. Is that
not so, Ser Osney?
Osney Kettleblack opened his eyes. When he saw the queen standing there before him he ran
his tongue across his swollen lips, and said, The Wall. You promised me the Wall.
He is mad, said Cersei. You have driven him mad.
Ser Osney, said the High Septon, in a firm, clear voice, did you have carnal knowledge of
the queen?
Aye. The chains rattled softly as Osney twisted in his shackles. That one there. Shes the
queen I fucked, the one sent me to kill the old High Septon. He never had no guards. I just come
in when he was sleeping and pushed a pillow down across his face.
Cersei whirled, and ran.
The High Septon tried to seize her, but he was some old sparrow and she was a lioness of the
Rock. She pushed him aside and burst through the door, slamming it behind her with a clang.
The Kettleblacks, I need the Kettleblacks, I will send in Osfryd with the gold cloaks and Osmund
with the Kingsguard, Osney will deny it all once they cut him free, and Ill rid myself of this
High Septon just as I did the other. The four old septas blocked her way and clutched at her with
wrinkled hands. She knocked one to the floor and clawed another across the face, and gained the
steps. Halfway up, she remembered Taena Merryweather. It made her stumble, panting. Seven
save me, she prayed. Taena knows it all. If they take her too, and whip her...

She ran as far as the sept, but no farther. There were women waiting for her there, more septas
and silent sisters too, younger than the four old crones below. I am the queen, she shouted,
backing away from them. I will have your heads for this, I will have all your heads. Let me
pass. Instead, they laid hands upon her. Cersei ran to the altar of the Mother, but they caught her
there, a score of them, and dragged her kicking up the tower steps. Inside the cell three silent
sisters held her down as a septa named Scolera stripped her bare. She even took her smallclothes.
Another septa tossed a roughspun shift at her. You cannot do this, the queen kept screaming at
them. I am a Lannister, unhand me, my brother will kill you, Jaime will slice you open from
throat to cunt, unhand me! I am the queen!
The queen should pray, said Septa Scolera, before they left her naked in the cold bleak cell.
She was not meek Margaery Tyrell, to don her little shift and submit to such captivity. I will
teach them what it means to put a lion in a cage, Cersei thought. She tore the shift into a hundred
pieces, found a ewer of water and smashed it against the wall, then did the same with the
chamber pot. When no one came, she began to pound on the door with her fists. Her escort was
below, on the plaza: ten Lannister guardsmen and Ser Boros Blount. Once they hear theyll come
free me, and well drag the bloody High Sparrow back to the Red Keep in chains.
She screamed and kicked and howled until her throat was raw, at the door and at the window.
No one shouted back, nor came to rescue her. The cell began to darken. It was growing cold as
well. Cersei began to shiver. How can they leave me like this, without so much as a fire? I am
their queen. She began to regret tearing apart the shift theyd given her. There was a blanket on
the pallet in the corner, a threadbare thing of thin brown wool. It was rough and scratchy, but it
was all she had. Cersei huddled underneath to keep from shivering, and before long she had
fallen into an exhausted sleep.
The next she knew, a heavy hand was shaking her awake. It was black as pitch inside the cell,
and a huge ugly woman was kneeling over her, a candle in her hand. Who are you? the queen
demanded. Are you come to set me free?
I am Septa Unella. I am come to hear you tell of all your murders and fornications.
Cersei knocked her hand aside. I will have your head. Do not presume to touch me. Get
away.
The woman rose. Your Grace. I will be back in an hour. Mayhaps by then you will be ready to
confess.
An hour and an hour and an hour. So passed the longest night that Cersei Lannister had ever
known, save for the night of Joffreys wedding. Her throat was so raw from shouting that she
could hardly swallow. The cell turned freezing cold. She had smashed the chamber pot, so she
had to squat in a corner to make her water and watch it trickle across the floor. Every time she
closed her eyes, Unella was looming over her again, shaking her and asking her if she wanted to
confess her sins.
Day brought no relief. Septa Moelle brought her a bowl of some waterly grey gruel as the sun
was coming up. Cersei flung it at her head. When they brought a fresh ewer of water, though, she
was so thirsty that she had no choice but to drink. When they brought another shift, grey and thin

and smelling of mildew, she put it on over her nakedness. And that evening when Moelle
appeared again she ate the bread and fish and demanded wine to wash it down. No wine
appeared, only Septa Unella, making her hourly visit to ask if the queen was ready to confess.
What can be happening? Cersei wondered, as the thin slice of sky outside her window began to
darken once again. Why has no one come to pry me out of here? She could not believe that the
Kettleblacks would abandon their brother. What was her council doing? Cravens and traitors.
When I get out of here I will have the lot of them beheaded and find better men to take their
place.
Thrice that day she heard the sound of distant shouting drifting up from the plaza, but it was
Margaerys name that the mob was calling, not hers.
It was near dawn on the second day and Cersei was licking the last of the porridge from the
bottom of the bowl when her cell door swung open unexpectedly to admit Lord Qyburn. It was
all she could do not to throw herself at him. Qyburn, she whispered, oh, gods, I am so glad to
see your face. Take me home.
That will not be allowed. You are to be tried before a holy court of seven, for murder, treason,
and fornication.
Cersei was so exhausted that the words seemed nonsensical to her at first. Tommen. Tell me of
my son. Is he still king?
He is, Your Grace. He is safe and well, secure within the walls of Maegors Holdfast,
protected by the Kingsguard. He is lonely, though. Fretful. He asks for you, and for his little
queen. As yet, no one has told him of your... your...
... difficulties? she suggested. What of Margaery?
She is to be tried as well, by the same court that conducts your trial. I had the Blue Bard
delivered to the High Septon, as Your Grace commanded. He is here now, somewhere down
below us. My whisperers tell me that they are whipping him, but so far he is still singing the
same sweet song we taught him.
The same sweet song. Her wits were dull for want of sleep. Wat, his real name is Wat. If the
gods were good, Wat might die beneath the lash, leaving Margaery with no way to disprove his
testimony. Where are my knights? Ser Osfryd... the High Septon means to kill his brother
Osney, his gold cloaks must...
Osfryd Kettleblack no longer commands the City Watch. The king has removed him from
office and raised the captain of the Dragon Gate in his place, a certain Humfrey Waters.
Cersei was so tired, none of this made any sense. Why would Tommen do that?
The boy is not to blame. When his council puts a decree in front of him, he signs his name and
stamps it with his seal.
My council... who? Who would do that? Not you?
Alas, I have been dismissed from the council, although for the nonce they allow me to
continue my work with the eunuchs whisperers. The realm is being ruled by Ser Harys Swyft
and Grand Maester Pycelle. They have dispatched a raven to Casterly Rock, inviting your uncle
to return to court and assume the regency. If he means to accept, he had best make haste. Mace

Tyrell has abandoned his siege of Storms End and is marching back to the city with his army,
and Randyll Tarly is reported on his way down from Maidenpool as well.
Has Lord Merryweather agreed to this?
Merryweather has resigned his seat on the council and fled back to Longtable with his wife,
who was the first to bring us news of the... accusations... against Your Grace.
They let Taena go. That was the best thing she had heard since the High Sparrow had said no.
Taena could have doomed her. What of Lord Waters? His ships... if he brings his crews ashore,
he should have enough men to...
As soon as word of Your Graces present troubles reached the river, Lord Waters raised sail,
unshipped his oars, and took his fleet to sea. Ser Harys fears he means to join Lord Stannis.
Pycelle believes that he is sailing to the Stepstones, to set himself up as a pirate.
All my lovely dromonds. Cersei almost laughed. My lord father used to say that bastards are
treacherous by nature. Would that I had listened. She shivered. I am lost, Qyburn.
No. He took her hand. Hope remains. Your Grace has the right to prove your innocence by
battle. My queen, your champion stands ready. There is no man in all the Seven Kingdoms who
can hope to stand against him. If you will only give the command...
This time she did laugh. It was funny, terribly funny, hideously funny. The gods make japes of
all our hopes and plans. I have a champion no man can defeat, but I am forbidden to make use of
him. I am the queen, Qyburn. My honor can only be defended by a Sworn Brother of the
Kingsguard.
I see. The smile died on Qyburns face. Your Grace, I am at a loss. I do not know how to
counsel you...
Even in her exhausted, frightened state, the queen knew she dare not trust her fate to a court of
sparrows. Nor could she count on Ser Kevan to intervene, after the words that had passed
between them at their last meeting. It will have to be a trial by battle. There is no other way.
Qyburn, for the love you bear me, I beg you, send a message for me. A raven if you can. A
rider, if not. You must send to Riverrun, to my brother. Tell him what has happened, and write...
write...
Yes, Your Grace?
She licked her lips, shivering. Come at once. Help me. Save me. I need you now as I have
never needed you before. I love you. I love you. I love you. Come at once.
As you command. I love you thrice?
Thrice. She had to reach him. He will come. I know he will. He must. Jaime is my only
hope.
My queen, said Qyburn, have you... forgotten? Ser Jaime has no sword hand. If he should
champion you and lose...
We will leave this world together, as we once came into it. He will not lose. Not Jaime. Not
with my life at stake.

JAIME
The new Lord of Riverrun was so angry that he was shaking. We have been deceived,
he said. This man had played us false! Pink spittle flew from his lips as he jabbed a finger at
Edmure Tully. I will have his head off! I rule in Riverrun, by the kings own decree, I
Emmon, said his wife, the Lord Commander knows about the kings decree. Ser Edmure
knows about the kings decree. The stableboys know about the kings decree.
I am the lord, and I will have his head!
For what crime? Thin as he was, Edmure still looked more lordly than Emmon Frey. He wore
a quilted doublet of red wool with a leaping trout embroidered on its chest. His boots were black,
his breeches blue. His auburn hair had been washed and barbered, his red beard neatly trimmed.
I did all that was asked of me.
Oh? Jaime Lannister had not slept since Riverrun had opened its gates, and his head was
pounding. I do not recall asking you to let Ser Brynden escape.
You required me to surrender my castle, not my uncle. Am I to blame if your men let him slip
through their siege lines?
Jaime was not amused. Where is he? he said, letting his irritation show. His men had
searched Riverrun thrice over, and Brynden Tully was nowhere to be found.
He never told me where he meant to go.
And you never asked. How did he get out?
Fish swim. Even black ones. Edmure smiled.
Jaime was sorely tempted to crack him across the mouth with his golden hand. A few missing
teeth would put an end to his smiles. For a man who was going to spend the rest of his life a
prisoner, Edmure was entirely too pleased with himself. We have oubliettes beneath the
Casterly Rock that fit a man as tight as a suit of armor. You cant turn in them, or sit, or reach
down to your feet when the rats start gnawing at your toes. Would you care to reconsider that
answer?
Lord Edmures smile went away. You gave me your word that I would be treated honorably,
as befits my rank.
So you shall, said Jaime. Nobler knights than you have died whimpering in those oubliettes,
and many a high lord too. Even a king or two, if I recall my history. Your wife can have the one
beside you, if you like. I would not want to part you.
He did swim, said Edmure, sullenly. He had the same blue eyes as his sister Catelyn, and
Jaime saw the same loathing there that hed once seen in hers. We raised the portcullis on the
Water Gate. Not all the way, just three feet or so. Enough to leave a gap under the water, though
the gate still appeared to be closed. My uncle is a strong swimmer. After dark, he pulled himself
beneath the spikes.
And he slipped under our boom the same way, no doubt. A moonless night, bored guards, a
black fish in a black river floating quietly downstream. If Ruttiger or Yew or any of their men
heard a splash, they would put it down to a turtle or a trout. Edmure had waited most of the day

before hauling down the direwolf of Stark in token of surrender. In the confusion of the castle
changing hands, it had been the next morning before Jaime had been informed that the Blackfish
was not amongst the prisoners.
He went to the window and gazed out over the river. It was a bright autumn day, and the sun
was shining on the waters. By now the Blackfish could be ten leagues downstream.
You have to find him, insisted Emmon Frey.
Hell be found. Jaime spoke with a certainty he did not feel. I have hounds and hunters
sniffing after him even now. Ser Addam Marbrand was leading the search on the south side of
the river, Ser Dermot of the Rainwood on the north. He had considered enlisting the riverlords as
well, but Vance and Piper and their ilk were more like to help the Blackfish escape than clap him
into fetters. All in all, he was not hopeful. He may elude us for a time, he said, but eventually
he must surface.
What if he should try and take my castle back?
You have a garrison of two hundred. Too large a garrison, in truth, but Lord Emmon had an
anxious disposition. At least he would have no trouble feeding them; the Blackfish had left
Riverrun amply provisioned, just as he had claimed. After the trouble Ser Brynden took to leave
us, I doubt that hell come skulking back. Unless it is at the head of a band of outlaws. He did
not doubt that the Blackfish meant to continue the fight.
This is your seat, Lady Genna told her husband. It is for you to hold it. If you cannot do that,
put it to the torch and run back to the Rock.
Lord Emmon rubbed his mouth. His hand came away red and slimy from the sourleaf. To be
sure. Riverrun is mine, and no man shall ever take it from me. He gave Edmure Tully one last
suspicious look, as Lady Genna drew him from the solar.
Is there any more that you would care to tell me? Jaime asked Edmure when the two of them
were alone.
This was my fathers solar, said Tully. He ruled the riverlands from here, wisely and well.
He liked to sit beside that window. The light was good there, and whenever he looked up from
his work he could see the river. When his eyes were tired he would have Cat read to him.
Littlefinger and I built a castle out of wooden blocks once, there beside the door. You will never
know how sick it makes me to see you in this room, Kingslayer. You will never know how much
I despise you.
He was wrong about that. I have been despised by better men than you, Edmure. Jaime called
for a guard. Take his lordship back to his tower and see that hes fed.
The Lord of Riverrun went silently. On the morrow, he would start west. Ser Forley Prester
would command his escort; a hundred men, including twenty knights. Best double that. Lord
Beric may try to free Edmure before they reach the Golden Tooth. Jaime did not want to have to
capture Tully for a third time.
He returned to Hoster Tullys chair, pulled over the map of the Trident, and flattened it beneath
his golden hand. Where would I go, if I were the Blackfish?

Lord Commander? A guardsman stood in the open door. Lady Westerling and her daughter
are without, as you commanded.
Jaime shoved the map aside. Show them in. At least the girl did not vanish too. Jeyne
Westerling had been Robb Starks queen, the girl who cost him everything. With a wolf in her
belly, she could have proved more dangerous than the Blackfish.
She did not look dangerous. Jeyne was a willowy girl, no more than fifteen or sixteen, more
awkward than graceful. She had narrow hips, breasts the size of apples, a mop of chestnut curls,
and the soft brown eyes of a doe. Pretty enough for a child, Jaime decided, but not a girl to lose a
kingdom for. Her face was puffy, and there was a scab on her forehead, half-hidden by a lock of
brown hair. What happened there? he asked her.
The girl turned her head away. It is nothing, insisted her mother, a stern-faced woman in a
gown of green velvet. A necklace of golden seashells looped about her long, thin neck. She
would not give up the little crown the rebel gave her, and when I tried to take it from her head
the willful child fought me.
It was mine. Jeyne sobbed. You had no right. Robb had it made for me. I loved him.
Her mother made to slap her, but Jaime stepped between them. None of that, he warned Lady
Sybell. Sit down, both of you. The girl curled up in her chair like a frightened animal, but her
mother sat stiffly, her head high. Will you have wine? he asked them. The girl did not answer.
No, thank you, said her mother.
As you will. Jaime turned to the daughter. I am sorry for your loss. The boy had courage, Ill
give him that. There is a question I must ask you. Are you carrying his child, my lady?
Jeyne burst from her chair and would have fled the room if the guard at the door had not seized
her by the arm. She is not, said Lady Sybell, as her daughter struggled to escape. I made
certain of that, as your lord father bid me.
Jaime nodded. Tywin Lannister was not a man to overlook such details. Unhand the girl, he
said, Im done with her for now. As Jeyne fled sobbing down the stairs, he considered her
mother. House Westerling has its pardon, and your brother Rolph has been made Lord of
Castamere. What else would you have of us?
Your lord father promised me worthy marriages for Jeyne and her younger sister. Lords or
heirs, he swore to me, not younger sons nor household knights.
Lords or heirs. To be sure. The Westerlings were an old House, and proud, but Lady Sybell
herself had been born a Spicer, from a line of upjumped merchants. Her grandmother had been
some sort of half-mad witch woman from the east, he seemed to recall. And the Westerlings
were impoverished. Younger sons would have been the best that Sybell Spicers daughters could
have hoped for in the ordinary course of events, but a nice fat pot of Lannister gold would make
even a dead rebels widow look attractive to some lord. Youll have your marriages, said
Jaime, but Jeyne must wait two full years before she weds again. If the girl took another
husband too soon and had a child by him, inevitably there would come whispers that the Young
Wolf was the father.

I have two sons as well, Lady Westerling reminded him. Rollam is with me, but Raynald
was a knight and went with the rebels to the Twins. If I had known what was to happen there, I
would never have allowed that. There was a hint of reproach in her voice. Raynald knew
nought of any... of the understanding with your lord father. He may be a captive at the Twins.
Or he may be dead. Walder Frey would not have known of the understanding either. I will
make inquiries. If Ser Raynald is still a captive, well pay his ransom for you.
Mention was made of a match for him as well. A bride from Casterly Rock. Your lord father
said that Raynald should have joy of him, if all went as we hoped.
Even from the grave, Lord Tywins dead hand moves us all. Joy is my late uncle Gerions
natural daughter. A betrothal can be arranged, if that is your wish, but any marriage will need to
wait. Joy was nine or ten when last I saw her.
His natural daughter? Lady Sybell looked as if she had swallowed a lemon. You want a
Westerling to wed a bastard?
No more than I want Joy to marry the son of some scheming turncloak bitch. She deserves
better. Jaime would happily have strangled the woman with her seashell necklace. Joy was a
sweet child, albeit a lonely one; her father had been Jaimes favorite uncle. Your daughter is
worth ten of you, my lady. Youll leave with Edmure and Ser Forley on the morrow. Until then,
you would do well to stay out of my sight. He shouted for a guardsman, and Lady Sybell went
off with her lips pressed primly together. Jaime had to wonder how much Lord Gawen knew
about his wifes scheming. How much do we men ever know?
When Edmure and the Westerlings departed, four hundred men rode with them; Jaime had
doubled the escort again at the last moment. He rode with them a few miles, to talk with Ser
Forley Prester. Though he bore a bulls head upon his surcoat and horns upon his helm, Ser
Forley could not have been less bovine. He was a short, spare, hard-bitten man. With his pinched
nose, bald pate, and grizzled brown beard, he looked more like an innkeep than a knight. We
dont know where the Blackfish is, Jaime reminded him, but if he can cut Edmure free, he
will.
That will not happen, my lord. Like most innkeeps, Ser Forley was no mans fool. Scouts
and outriders will screen our march, and well fortify our camps by night. I have picked ten men
to stay with Tully day and night, my best longbowmen. If he should ride so much as a foot off
the road, they will loose so many shafts at him that his own mother would take him for a goose.
Good. Jaime would as lief have Tully reach Casterly Rock safely, but better dead than fled.
Best keep some archers near Lord Westerlings daughter as well.
Ser Forley seemed taken aback. Gawens girl? Shes
the Young Wolfs widow, Jaime finished, and twice as dangerous as Edmure if she were
ever to escape us.
As you say, my lord. She will be watched.
Jaime had to canter past the Westerlings as he rode down the column on his way back to
Riverrun. Lord Gawen nodded gravely as he passed, but Lady Sybell looked through him with
eyes like chips of ice. Jeyne never saw him at all. The widow rode with downcast eyes, huddled

beneath a hooded cloak. Underneath its heavy folds, her clothes were finely made, but torn. She
ripped them herself, as a mark of mourning, Jaime realized. That could not have pleased her
mother. He found himself wondering if Cersei would tear her gown if she should ever hear that
he was dead.
He did not go straight back to the castle but crossed the Tumblestone once more to call on
Edwyn Frey and discuss the transfer of his great-grandfathers prisoners. The Frey host had
begun to break up within hours of Riverruns surrender, as Lord Walders bannermen and
freeriders pulled up stakes to make for home. The Freys who still remained were striking camp,
but he found Edwyn with his bastard uncle in the latters pavilion.
The two of them were huddled over a map, arguing heatedly, but they broke off when Jaime
entered. Lord Commander, Rivers said with cold courtesy, but Edwyn blurted out, My
fathers blood is on your hands, ser.
That took Jaime a bit aback. How so?
You were the one who sent him home, were you not?
Someone had to. Has some ill befallen Ser Ryman?
Hanged with all his party, said Walder Rivers. The outlaws caught them two leagues south
of Fairmarket.
Dondarrion?
Him, or Thoros, or this woman Stoneheart.
Jaime frowned. Ryman Frey had been a fool, a craven, and a sot, and no one was like to miss
him much, least of all his fellow Freys. If Edwyns dry eyes were any clue, even his own sons
would not mourn him long. Still... these outlaws are growing bold, if they dare hang Lord
Walders heir not a days ride from the Twins. How many men did Ser Ryman have with him?
he asked.
Three knights and a dozen men-at-arms, said Rivers. It is almost as if they knew that he
would be returning to the Twins, and with a small escort.
Edwyns mouth twisted. My brother had a hand in this, Ill wager. He allowed the outlaws to
escape after they murdered Merrett and Petyr, and this is why. With our father dead, theres only
me left between Black Walder and the Twins.
You have no proof of this, said Walder Rivers.
I do not need proof. I know my brother.
Your brother is at Seagard, Rivers insisted. How could he have known that Ser Ryman was
returning to the Twins?
Someone told him, said Edwyn in a bitter tone. He has his spies in our camp, you can be
sure.
And you have yours at Seagard. Jaime knew that the enmity between Edwyn and Black Walder
ran deep, but cared not a fig which of them succeeded their great-grandfather as Lord of the
Crossing.

If you will pardon me for intruding on your grief, he said, in a dry tone, we have other
matters to consider. When you return to the Twins, please inform Lord Walder that King
Tommen requires all the captives you took at the Red Wedding.
Ser Walder frowned. These prisoners are valuable, ser.
His Grace would not ask for them if they were worthless.
Frey and Rivers exchanged a look. Edwyn said, My lord grandfather will expect recompense
for these prisoners.
And hell have it, as soon as I grow a new hand, thought Jaime. We all have expectations, he
said mildly. Tell me, is Ser Raynald Westerling amongst these captives?
The knight of seashells? Edwyn sneered. Youll find that one feeding the fish at the bottom
of the Green Fork.
He was in the yard when our men came to put the direwolf down, said Walder Rivers.
Whalen demanded his sword and he gave it over meek enough, but when the crossbowmen
began feathering the wolf he seized Whalens axe and cut the monster loose of the net theyd
thrown over him. Whalen says he took a quarrel in his shoulder and another in the gut, but still
managed to reach the wallwalk and throw himself into the river.
He left a trail of blood on the steps, said Edwyn.
Did you find his corpse afterward? asked Jaime.
We found a thousand corpses afterward. Once theyve spent a few days in the river they all
look much the same.
Ive heard the same is true of hanged men, said Jaime, before he took his leave.
By the next morning little remained of the Frey encampment but flies, horse dung, and Ser
Rymans gallows, standing forlorn beside the Tumblestone. His coz wanted to know what should
be done with it, and with the siege equipment he had built, his rams and sows and towers and
treb-uchets. Daven proposed that they drag it all to Raventree and use it there. Jaime told him to
put everything to the torch, starting with the gallows. I mean to deal with Lord Tytos myself. It
wont require a siege tower.
Daven grinned through his bushy beard. Single combat, coz? Scarce seems fair. Tytos is an old
grey man.
An old grey man with two hands.
That night he and Ser Ilyn fought for three hours. It was one of his better nights. If they had
been in earnest, Payne only would have killed him twice. Half a dozen deaths were more the
rule, and some nights were worse than that. If I keep at this for another year, I may be as good
as Peck, Jaime declared, and Ser Ilyn made that clacking sound that meant he was amused.
Come, lets drink some more of Hoster Tullys good red wine.
Wine had become a part of their nightly ritual. Ser Ilyn made the perfect drinking companion.
He never interrupted, never disagreed, never complained or asked for favors or told long
pointless stories. All he did was drink and listen.
I should have the tongues removed from all my friends, said Jaime as he filled their cups,
and from my kin as well. A silent Cersei would be sweet. Though Id miss her tongue when we

kissed. He drank. The wine was a deep red, sweet and heavy. It warmed him going down. I
cant remember when we first began to kiss. It was innocent at first. Until it wasnt. He finished
the wine and set his cup aside. Tyrion once told me that most whores will not kiss you. Theyll
fuck you blind, he said, but youll never feel their lips on yours. Do you think my sister kisses
Kettleblack?
Ser Ilyn did not answer.
I dont think it would be proper for me to slay mine own Sworn Brother. What I need to do is
geld him and send him to the Wall. Thats what they did with Lucamore the Lusty. Ser Osmund
may not take kindly to the gelding, to be sure. And there are his brothers to consider. Brothers
can be dangerous. After Aegon the Unworthy put Ser Terrence Toyne to death for sleeping with
his mistress, Toynes brothers did their best to kill him. Their best was not quite good enough,
thanks to the Dragonknight, but it was not for want of trying. Its written down in the White
Book. All of it, save what to do with Cersei.
Ser Ilyn drew a finger across his throat.
No, said Jaime. Tommen has lost a brother, and the man he thought of as his father. If I were
to kill his mother, he would hate me for it... and that sweet little wife of his would find a way to
turn that hatred to the benefit of Highgarden.
Ser Ilyn smiled in a way Jaime did not like. An ugly smile. An ugly soul. You talk too much,
he told the man.
The next day Ser Dermot of the Rainwood returned to the castle, empty-handed. When asked
what hed found, he answered, Wolves. Hundreds of the bloody beggars. Hed lost two
sentries to them. The wolves had come out of the dark to savage them. Armed men in mail and
boiled leather, and yet the beasts had no fear of them. Before he died, Jate said the pack was led
by a she-wolf of monstrous size. A direwolf, to hear him tell it. The wolves got in amongst our
horse lines too. The bloody bastards killed my favorite bay.
A ring of fires round your camp might keep them off, said Jaime, though he wondered. Could
Ser Dermots direwolf be the same beast that had mauled Joffrey near the crossroads?
Wolves or no, Ser Dermot took fresh horses and more men and went out again the next
morning, to resume the search for Brynden Tully. That same afternoon, the lords of the Trident
came to Jaime asking his leave to return to their own lands. He granted it. Lord Piper also wanted
to know about his son Marq. All the captives will be ransomed, Jaime promised. As the
riverlords took their leave, Lord Karyl Vance lingered to say, Lord Jaime, you must go to
Raventree. So long as it is Jonos at his gates Tytos will never yield, but I know he will bend his
knee for you. Jaime thanked him for his counsel.
Strongboar was the next to depart. He wanted to return to Darry as hed promised and fight the
outlaws. We rode across half the bloody realm and for what? So you could make Edmure Tully
piss his breeches? Theres no song in that. I need a fight. I want the Hound, Jaime. Him, or the
marcher lord.
The Hounds head is yours if you can take it, Jaime said, but Beric Dondarrion is to be
captured alive, so he can be brought back to Kings Landing. A thousand people need to see him

die, or else he wont stay dead. Strongboar grumbled at that, but finally agreed. The next day he
departed with his squire and men-at-arms, plus Beardless Jon Bettley, who had decided that
hunting outlaws was preferable to returning to his famously homely wife. Supposedly she had
the beard that Bettley lacked.
Jaime still had the garrison to deal with. To a man, they swore that they knew nothing of Ser
Bryndens plans or where he might have gone. They are lying, Emmon Frey insisted, but
Jaime thought not. If you share your plans with no one, no one can betray you, he pointed out.
Lady Genna suggested that a few of the men might be put to the question. He refused. I gave
Edmure my word that if he yielded, the garrison could leave unharmed.
That was chivalrous of you, his aunt said, but its strength thats needed here, not chivalry.
Ask Edmure how chivalrous I am, thought Jaime. Ask him about the trebuchet. Somehow he
did not think the maesters were like to confuse him with Prince Aemon the Dragonknight when
they wrote their histories. Still, he felt curiously content. The war was all but won. Dragonstone
had fallen and Storms End would soon enough, he could not doubt, and Stannis was welcome to
the Wall. The northmen would love him no more than the storm lords had. If Roose Bolton did
not destroy him, winter would.
And he had done his own part here at Riverrun without actually ever taking up arms against the
Starks or Tullys. Once he found the Blackfish, he would be free to return to Kings Landing,
where he belonged. My place is with my king. With my son. Would Tommen want to know that?
The truth could cost the boy his throne. Would you sooner have a father or a chair, lad? Jaime
wished he knew the answer. He does like stamping papers with his seal. The boy might not even
believe him, to be sure. Cersei would say it was a lie. My sweet sister, the deceiver. He would
need to find some way to winkle Tommen from her clutches before the boy became another
Joffrey. And whilst at that, he should find the lad a new small council too. If Cersei can be put
aside, Ser Kevan may agree to serve as Tommens Hand. And if not, well, the Seven Kingdoms
did not lack for able men. Forley Prester would make a good choice, or Roland Crakehall. If
someone other than a westerman was needed to appease the Tyrells, there was always Mathis
Rowan... or even Petyr Baelish. Littlefinger was as amiable as he was clever, but too lowborn to
threaten any of the great lords, with no swords of his own. The perfect Hand.
The Tully garrison departed the next morning, stripped of all their arms and armor. Each man
was allowed three days food and the clothing on his back, after he swore a solemn oath never to
take up arms against Lord Emmon or House Lannister. If youre fortunate, one man in ten may
keep that vow, Lady Genna said.
Good. Id sooner face nine men than ten. The tenth might have been the one who would have
killed me.
The other nine will kill you just as quick.
Better that than die in bed. Or on the privy.
Two men did not choose to depart with the others. Ser Desmond Grell, Lord Hosters old
master-at-arms, preferred to take the black. So did Ser Robin Ryger, Riverruns captain of
guards. This castles been my home for forty years, said Grell. You say Im free to go, but

where? Im too old and too stout to make a hedge knight. But men are always welcome at the
Wall.
As you wish, said Jaime, though it was a bloody nuisance. He allowed them to keep their
arms and armor, and assigned a dozen of Gregor Cleganes men to escort the two of them to
Maidenpool. The command he gave to Rafford, the one they called the Sweetling. See to it that
the prisoners reach Maidenpool unspoiled, he told the man, or what Ser Gregor did to the Goat
will seem a jolly lark compared to what Ill do to you.
More days passed. Lord Emmon assembled all of Riverrun in the yard, Lord Edmures people
and his own, and spoke to them for close on three hours about what would be expected of them
now that he was their lord and master. From time to time he waved his parchment, as stableboys
and serving girls and smiths listened in a sullen silence and a light rain fell down upon them all.
The singer was listening too, the one that Jaime had taken from Ser Ryman Frey. Jaime came
upon him standing inside an open door, where it was dry. His lordship should have been a
singer, the man said. This speech is longer than a marcher ballad, and I dont think hes
stopped for breath.
Jaime had to laugh. Lord Emmon does not need to breathe, so long as he can chew. Are you
going to make a song of it?
A funny one. Ill call it Talking to the Fish.
Just dont play it where my aunt can hear. Jaime had never paid the man much mind before.
He was a small fellow, garbed in ragged green breeches and a frayed tunic of a lighter shade of
green, with brown leather patches covering the holes. His nose was long and sharp, his smile big
and loose. Thin brown hair fell to his collar, snaggled and unwashed. Fifty if hes a day, thought
Jaime, a hedge harp, and hard used by life. Werent you Ser Rymans man when I found you?
he asked.
Only for a fortnight.
I would have expected you to depart with the Freys.
That one up theres a Frey, the singer said, nodding at Lord Emmon, and this castle seems a
nice snug place to pass the winter. Whitesmile Wat went home with Ser Forley, so I thought Id
see if I could win his place. Wats got that high sweet voice that the likes o me cant hope to
match. But I know twice as many bawdy songs as he does. Begging my lords pardon.
You should get on famously with my aunt, said Jaime. If you hope to winter here, see that
your playing pleases Lady Genna. Shes the one that matters.
Not you?
My place is with the king. I shall not stay here long.
Im sorry to hear that, my lord. I know better songs than The Rains of Castamere. I could
have played you... oh, all sorts o things.
Some other time, said Jaime. Do you have a name?
Tom of Sevenstreams, if it please my lord. The singer doffed his hat. Most call me Tom o
Sevens, though.
Sing sweetly, Tom o Sevens.

That night he dreamt that he was back in the Great Sept of Baelor, still standing vigil over his
fathers corpse. The sept was still and dark, until a woman emerged from the shadows and
walked slowly to the bier. Sister? he said.
But it was not Cersei. She was all in grey, a silent sister. A hood and veil concealed her
features, but he could see the candles burning in the green pools of her eyes. Sister, he said,
what would you have of me? His last word echoed up and down the sept,
mememememememe.
I am not your sister, Jaime. She raised a pale soft hand and pushed her hood back. Have you
forgotten me?
Can I forget someone I never knew? The words caught in his throat. He did know her, but it had
been so long...
Will you forget your own lord father too? I wonder if you ever knew him, truly. Her eyes
were green, her hair spun gold. He could not tell how old she was. Fifteen, he thought, or fifty.
She climbed the steps to stand above the bier. He could never abide being laughed at. That was
the thing he hated most.
Who are you? He had to hear her say it.
The question is, who are you?
This is a dream.
Is it? She smiled sadly. Count your hands, child.
One. One hand, clasped tight around the sword hilt. Only one. In my dreams I always have
two hands. He raised his right arm and stared uncomprehending at the ugliness of his stump.
We all dream of things we cannot have. Tywin dreamed that his son would be a great knight,
that his daughter would be a queen. He dreamed they would be so strong and brave and beautiful
that no one would ever laugh at them.
I am a knight, he told her, and Cersei is a queen.
A tear rolled down her cheek. The woman raised her hood again and turned her back on him.
Jaime called after her, but already she was moving away, her skirt whispering lullabies as it
brushed across the floor. Dont leave me, he wanted to call, but of course shed left them long
ago.
He woke in darkness, shivering. The room had grown cold as ice. Jaime flung aside the covers
with the stump of his sword hand. The fire in the hearth had died, he saw, and the window had
blown open. He crossed the pitch-dark chamber to fumble with the shutters, but when he reached
the window his bare foot came down in something wet. Jaime recoiled, startled for a moment.
His first thought was of blood, but blood would not have been so cold.
It was snow, drifting through the window.
Instead of closing the shutters he threw them wide. The yard below was covered by a thin white
blanket, growing thicker even as he watched. The merlons on the battlements wore white cowls.
The flakes fell silently, a few drifting in the window to melt upon his face. Jaime could see his
own breath.

Snow in the riverlands. If it was snowing here, it could well be snowing on Lannisport as well,
and on Kings Landing. Winter is marching south, and half our granaries are empty. Any crops
still in the fields were doomed. There would be no more plantings, no more hopes of one last
harvest. He found himself wondering what his father would do to feed the realm, before he
remembered that Tywin Lannister was dead.
When morning broke the snow was ankle deep, and deeper in the godswood, where drifts had
piled up under the trees. Squires, stableboys, and highborn pages turned to children again under
its cold white spell, and fought a snowball war up and down the wards and all along the
battlements. Jaime heard them laughing. There was a time, not long ago, when he might have
been out making snowballs with the best of them, to fling at Tyrion when he waddled by, or slip
down the back of Cerseis gown. You need two hands to make a decent snowball, though.
There was a rap upon his door. See who that is, Peck.
It was Riverruns old maester, with a message clutched in his lined and wrinkled hand.
Vymans face was as pale as the new-fallen snow. I know, Jaime said, there has been a white
raven from the Citadel. Winter has come.
No, my lord. The bird was from Kings Landing. I took the liberty... I did not know... He held
the letter out.
Jaime read it in the window seat, bathed in the light of that cold white morning. Qyburns
words were terse and to the point, Cerseis fevered and fervent. Come at once, she said. Help me.
Save me. I need you now as I have never needed you before. I love you. I love you. I love you.
Come at once.
Vyman was hovering by the door, waiting, and Jaime sensed that Peck was watching too. Does
my lord wish to answer? the maester asked, after a long silence.
A snowflake landed on the letter. As it melted, the ink began to blur. Jaime rolled the
parchment up again, as tight as one hand would allow, and handed it to Peck. No, he said. Put
this in the fire.

SAMWELL
The most perilous part of the voyage was the last. The Redwyne Straits were swarming
with longships, as they had been warned in Tyrosh. With the main strength of the Arbors fleet
on the far side of Westeros, the ironmen had sacked Ryamsport and taken Vinetown and Starfish
Harbor for their own, using them as bases to prey on shipping bound for Oldtown.
Thrice longships were sighted by the crows nest. Two were well astern, however, and the
Cinnamon Wind soon outdistanced them. The third appeared near sunset, to cut them off from
Whispering Sound. When they saw her oars rising and falling, lashing the copper waters white,
Kojja Mo sent her archers to the castles with their great bows of goldenheart that could send a
shaft farther and truer than even Dornish yew. She waited till the longship came within two
hundred yards before she gave the command to loose. Sam loosed with them, and this time he
thought his arrow reached the ship. One volley was all it took. The longship veered south in
search of tamer prey.
A deep blue dusk was falling as they entered Whispering Sound. Gilly stood beside the prow
with the babe, gazing up at a castle on the cliffs. Three Towers, Sam told her, the seat of
House Costayne. Etched against the evening stars with torchlight flickering from its windows,
the castle made a splendid sight, but he was sad to see it. Their voyage was almost at its end.
Its very tall, said Gilly.
Wait until you see the Hightower.
Dallas babe began to cry. Gilly pulled open her tunic and gave the boy her breast. She smiled
as he nursed, and stroked his soft brown hair. She has come to love this one as much as the one
she left behind, Sam realized. He hoped that the gods would be kind to both of the children.
The ironmen had penetrated even to the sheltered waters of Whispering Sound. Come morning,
as the Cinnamon Wind continued on toward Oldtown, she began to bump up against corpses
drifting down to the sea. Some of the bodies carried complements of crows, who rose into the air
complaining noisily when the swan ship disturbed their grotesquely swollen rafts. Scorched
fields and burned villages appeared on the banks, and the shallows and sandbars were strewn
with shattered ships. Merchanters and fishing boats were the most common, but they saw
abandoned longships too, and the wreckage of two big dromonds. One had been burned down to
the waterline, whilst the other had a gaping splintered hole in her side where her hull had been
rammed.
Battle here, said Xhondo. Not so long.
Who would be so mad as to raid this close to Oldtown?
Xhondo pointed at a half-sunken longship in the shallows. The remnants of a banner drooped
from her stern, smoke-stained and ragged. The charge was one Sam had never seen before: a red
eye with a black pupil, beneath a black iron crown supported by two crows. Whose banner is
that? Sam asked. Xhondo only shrugged.
The next day was cold and misty. As the Cinnamon Wind was creeping past another plundered
fishing village, a war galley came sliding from the fog, stroking slowly toward them. Huntress

was the name she bore, behind a figurehead of a slender maiden clad in leaves and brandishing a
spear. A heartbeat later, two smaller galleys appeared on either side of her, like a pair of matched
greyhounds stalking at their masters heels. To Sams relief, they flew King Tommens stag-and-
lion banner above the stepped white tower of Oldtown, with its crown of flame.
The captain of the Huntress was a tall man in a smoke-grey cloak with a border of red satin
flames. He brought his galley in alongside the Cinnamon Wind, raised his oars, and shouted that
he was coming aboard. As his crossbowmen and Kojja Mos archers eyed each other across the
narrow span of water, he crossed over with half a dozen knights, gave Quhuru Mo a nod, and
asked to see his holds. Father and daughter conferred briefly, then agreed.
My apologies, the captain said when his inspection was complete. It grieves me that honest
men must suffer such discourtesy, but sooner that than ironmen in Oldtown. Only a fortnight ago
some of those bloody bastards captured a Tyroshi merchantman in the straits. They killed her
crew, donned their clothes, and used the dyes they found to color their whiskers half a hundred
colors. Once inside the walls they meant to set the port ablaze and open a gate from within whilst
we fought the fire. Might have worked, but they ran afoul of the Lady of the Tower, and her
oarsmaster has a Tyroshi wife. When he saw all the green and purple beards he hailed them in
the tongue of Tyrosh, and not one of them had the words to hail him back.
Sam was aghast. They cannot mean to raid Oldtown.
The captain of the Huntress gave him a curious look. These are no mere reavers. The ironmen
have always raided where they could. They would strike sudden from the sea, carry off some
gold and girls, and sail away, but there were seldom more than one or two longships, and never
more than half a dozen. Hundreds of their ships afflict us now, sailing out of the Shield Islands
and some of the rocks around the Arbor. They have taken Stonecrab Cay, the Isle of Pigs, and
the Mermaids Palace, and there are other nests on Horseshoe Rock and Bastards Cradle.
Without Lord Redwynes fleet, we lack the ships to come to grips with them.
What is Lord Hightower doing? Sam blurted. My father always said he was as wealthy as
the Lannisters, and could command thrice as many swords as any of Highgardens other
bannermen.
More, if he sweeps the cobblestones, the captain said, but swords are no good against the
ironmen, unless the men who wield them know how to walk on water.
The Hightower must be doing something.
To be sure. Lord Leytons locked atop his tower with the Mad Maid, consulting books of
spells. Might be hell raise an army from the deeps. Or not. Baelors building galleys, Gunthor
has charge of the harbor, Garth is training new recruits, and Humfreys gone to Lys to hire
sellsails. If he can winkle a proper fleet out of his whore of a sister, we can start paying back the
ironmen with some of their own coin. Till then, the best we can do is guard the sound and wait
for the bitch queen in Kings Landing to let Lord Paxter off his leash.
The bitterness of the captains final words shocked Sam as much as the things he said. If Kings
Landing loses Oldtown and the Arbor, the whole realm will fall to pieces, he thought as he
watched the Huntress and her sisters moving off.

It made him wonder if even Horn Hill was truly safe. The Tarly lands lay inland amidst thickly
wooded foothills, a hundred leagues northeast of Oldtown and a long way from any coast. They
should be well beyond the reach of ironmen and longships, even with his lord father off fighting
in the riverlands and the castle lightly held. The Young Wolf had no doubt thought the same was
true of Winterfell until the night that Theon Turncloak scaled his walls. Sam could not bear the
thought that he might have brought Gilly and her babe all this long way to keep them out of
harm, only to abandon them in the midst of war.
He wrestled with his doubts through the rest of the voyage, wondering what to do. He could
keep Gilly with him in Oldtown, he supposed. The citys walls were much more formidable than
those of his fathers castle, and had thousands of men to defend them, as opposed to the handful
Lord Randyll would have left at Horn Hill when he marched to Highgarden to answer his liege
lords summons. If he did, though, he would need to hide her somehow; the Citadel did not
permit its novices to keep wives or paramours, at least not openly. Besides, if I stay with Gilly
very much longer, how will I ever find the strength to leave her? He had to leave her, or desert. I
said the words, Sam reminded himself. If I desert, it will mean my head, and how will that help
Gilly?
He considered begging Kojja Mo and her father to take the wildling girl with them to the
Summer Isles. That path had its perils too, however. When the Cinnamon Wind left Oldtown,
she would need to cross the Redwyne Straits again, and this time she might not be so fortunate.
What if the wind died, and the Summer Islanders found themselves becalmed? If the tales hed
heard were true, Gilly would be carried off for a thrall or salt wife, and the babe was like to be
chucked into the sea as a nuisance.
It has to be Horn Hill, Sam finally decided. Once we reach Oldtown Ill hire a wagon and some
horses and take her there myself. That way he could make certain of the castle and its garrison,
and if any part of what he saw or heard gave him pause, he could just turn around and bring Gilly
back to Oldtown.
They reached Oldtown on a cold damp morning, when the fog was so thick that the beacon of
the Hightower was the only part of the city to be seen. A boom stretched across the harbor,
linking two dozen rotted hulks. Just behind it stood a line of warships, anchored by three big
dromonds and Lord Hightowers towering four-decked banner ship, the Honor of Oldtown. Once
again the Cinnamon Wind had to submit to inspection. This time it was Lord Leytons son
Gunthor who came aboard, in a cloth-of-silver cloak and a suit of grey enameled scales. Ser
Gunthor had studied at the Citadel for several years and spoke the Summer Tongue, so he and
Qurulu Mo adjourned to the captains cabin for a privy conference.
Sam used the time to explain his plans to Gilly. First the Citadel, to present Jons letters and
tell them of Maester Aemons death. I expect the archmaesters will send a cart for his body.
Then I will arrange for horses and a wagon to take you to my mother at Horn Hill. I will be back
as soon as I can, but it may not be until the morrow.
The morrow, she repeated, and gave him a kiss for luck.

At length Ser Gunthor reemerged and gave the signal for the chain to be opened so the
Cinnamon Wind could slip through the boom to dock. Sam joined Kojja Mo and three of her
archers near the gangplank as the swan ship was tying up, the Summer Islanders resplendent in
the feathered cloaks they only wore ashore. He felt a shabby thing beside them in his baggy
blacks, faded cloak, and salt-stained boots. How long will you remain in port?
Two days, ten days, who can say? However long it takes to empty our holds and fill them
again. Kojja grinned. My father must visit the grey maesters as well. He has books to sell.
Can Gilly stay aboard till I return?
Gilly can stay as long as she likes. She poked Sam in the belly with a finger. She does not
eat so much as some.
Im not so fat as I was before, Sam said defensively. The passage south had seen to that. All
those watches, and nothing to eat but fruit and fish. Summer Islanders loved fruit and fish.
Sam followed the archers across the plank, but once ashore they parted company and went their
separate ways. He hoped he still remembered the way to the Citadel. Oldtown was a maze, and
he had no time for getting lost.
The day was damp, so the cobblestones were wet and slippery underfoot, the alleys shrouded in
mist and mystery. Sam avoided them as best he could and stayed on the river road that wound
along beside the Honeywine through the heart of the old city. It felt good to have solid ground
beneath his feet again instead of a rolling deck, but the walk made him feel uncomfortable all the
same. He could feel eyes on him, peering down from balconies and windows, watching him from
the darkened doorways. On the Cinnamon Wind he had known every face. Here, everywhere he
turned he saw another stranger. Even worse was the thought of being seen by someone who
knew him. Lord Randyll Tarly was known in Oldtown, but little loved. Sam did not know which
would be worse: to be recognized by one of his lord fathers enemies or by one of his friends. He
pulled his cloak up and quickened his pace.
The gates of the Citadel were flanked by a pair of towering green sphinxes with the bodies of
lions, the wings of eagles, and the tails of serpents. One had a mans face, one a womans. Just
beyond stood Scribes Hearth, where Oldtowners came in search of acolytes to write their wills
and read their letters. Half a dozen bored scribes sat in open stalls, waiting for some custom. At
other stalls books were being bought and sold. Sam stopped at one that offered maps, and looked
over a hand-drawn map of Citadel to ascertain the shortest way to the Seneschals Court.
The path divided where the statue of King Daeron the First sat astride his tall stone horse, his
sword lifted toward Dorne. A seagull was perched on the Young Dragons head, and two more
on the blade. Sam took the left fork, which ran beside the river. At the Weeping Dock, he
watched two acolytes help an old man into a boat for the short voyage to the Bloody Isle. A
young mother climbed in after him, a babe not much older than Gillys squalling in her arms.
Beneath the dock, some cooks boys waded in the shallows, gathering frogs. A stream of pink-
cheeked novices hurried by him toward the septry. I should have come here when I was their
age, Sam thought. If I had run off and taken a false name, I could have disappeared amongst the
other novices. Father could have pretended that Dickon was his only son. I doubt he would even

have troubled to search for me, unless I took a mule to ride. Then he would have hunted me
down, but only for the mule.
Outside the Seneschals Court, the rectors were locking an older novice into the stocks.
Stealing food from the kitchens, one explained to the acolytes who were waiting to pelt the
captive with rotting vegetables. They all gave Sam curious looks as he strode past, his black
cloak billowing behind him like a sail.
Beyond the doors he found a hall with a stone floor and high, arched windows. At the far end a
man with a pinched face sat upon a raised dais, scratching in a ledger with a quill. Though the
man was clad in a maesters robe, there was no chain about his neck. Sam cleared his throat.
Good morrow.
The man glanced up and did not appear to approve of what he saw. You smell of novice.
I hope to be one soon. Sam drew out the letters Jon Snow had given him. I came from the
Wall with Maester Aemon, but he died during the voyage. If I could speak with the Seneschal...
Your name?
Samwell. Samwell Tarly.
The man wrote the name in his ledger and waved his quill at a bench along the wall. Sit.
Youll be called when wanted.
Sam took a seat on the bench.
Others came and went. Some delivered messages and took their leave. Some spoke to the man
on the dais and were sent through the door behind him and up a turnpike stair. Some joined Sam
on the benches, waiting for their names to be called. A few of those who were summoned had
come in after him, he was almost certain. After the fourth or fifth time that happened, he rose and
crossed the room again. How much longer will it be?
The Seneschal is an important man.
I came all the way from the Wall.
Then you will have no trouble going a bit farther. He waved his quill. To that bench just
there, beneath the window.
Sam returned to the bench. Another hour passed. Others entered, spoke to the man on the dais,
waited a few moments, and were ushered onward. The gatekeeper did not so much as glance at
Sam in all that time. The fog outside grew thinner as the day wore on, and pale sunlight slanted
down through the windows. He found himself watching dust motes dance in the light. A yawn
escaped him, then another. He picked at a broken blister on his palm, then leaned his head back
and closed his eyes.
He must have drowsed. The next he knew, the man behind the dais was calling out a name. Sam
came lurching to his feet, then sat back down again when he realized it was not his name.
You need to slip Lorcas a penny, or youll be waiting here three days, a voice beside him
said. What brings the Nights Watch to the Citadel?
The speaker was a slim, slight, comely youth, clad in doeskin breeches and a snug green
brigandine with iron studs. He had skin the color of a light brown ale and a cap of tight black
curls that came to a widows peak above his big black eyes. The Lord Commander is restoring

the abandoned castles, Sam explained. We need more maesters, for the ravens... did you say, a
penny?
A penny will serve. For a silver stag Lorcas will carry you up to the Seneschal on his back. He
has been fifty years an acolyte. He hates novices, particularly novices of noble birth.
How could you tell I was of noble birth?
The same way you can tell that Im half Dornish. The statement was delivered with a smile,
in a soft Dornish drawl.
Sam fumbled for a penny. Are you a novice?
An acolyte. Alleras, by some called Sphinx.
The name gave Sam a jolt. The sphinx is the riddle, not the riddler, he blurted. Do you know
what that means?
No. Is it a riddle?
I wish I knew. Im Samwell Tarly. Sam.
Well met. And what business does Samwell Tarly have with Archmaester Theobald?
Is he the Seneschal? said Sam, confused. Maester Aemon said his name was Norren.
Not for the past two turns. There is a new one every year. They fill the office by lot from
amongst the archmaesters, most of whom regard it as a thankless task that takes them away from
their true work. This year the black stone was drawn by Archmaester Walgrave, but Walgraves
wits are prone to wander, so Theobald stepped up and said hed serve his term. Hes a gruff man,
but a good one. Did you say Maester Aemon?
Aye.
Aemon Targaryen?
Once. Most just called him Maester Aemon. He died during our voyage south. How is it that
you know of him?
How not? He was more than just the oldest living maester. He was the oldest man in Westeros,
and lived through more history than Archmaester Perestan has ever learned. He could have told
us much and more about his fathers reign, and his uncles. How old was he, do you know?
One hundred and two.
What was he doing at sea, at his age?
Sam chewed on the question for a moment, wondering how much he ought to say. The sphinx
is the riddle, not the riddler. Could Maester Aemon have meant this Sphinx? It seemed unlikely.
Lord Commander Snow sent him away to save his life, he began, hesitantly. He spoke
awkwardly of King Stannis and Melisandre of Asshai, intending to stop at that, but one thing led
to another and he found himself speaking of Mance Rayder and his wildlings, kings blood and
dragons, and before he knew what was happening, all the rest came spilling out; the wights at the
Fist of First Men, the Other on his dead horse, the murder of the Old Bear at Crasters Keep,
Gilly and their flight, Whitetree and Small Paul, Coldhands and the ravens, Jons becoming lord
commander, the Blackbird, Dareon, Braavos, the dragons Xhondo saw in Qarth, the Cinnamon
Wind and all that Maester Aemon whispered toward the end. He held back only the secrets that
he was sworn to keep, about Bran Stark and his companions and the babes Jon Snow had

swapped. Daenerys is the only hope, he concluded. Aemon said the Citadel must send her a
maester at once, to bring her home to Westeros before it is too late.
Alleras listened intently. He blinked from time to time, but he never laughed and never
interrupted. When Sam was done he touched him lightly on the forearm with a slim brown hand
and said, Save your penny, Sam. Theobald will not believe half of that, but there are those who
might. Will you come with me?
Where?
To speak with an archmaester.
You must tell them, Sam, Maester Aemon had said. You must tell the archmaesters. Very
well. He could always return to the Seneschal on the morrow, with a penny in his hand. How
far do we have to go?
Not far. The Isle of Ravens.
They did not need a boat to reach the Isle of Ravens; a weathered wooden drawbridge linked it
to the eastern bank. The Ravenry is the oldest building at the Citadel, Alleras told him, as they
crossed over the slow-flowing waters of the Honeywine. In the Age of Heroes it was
supposedly the stronghold of a pirate lord who sat here robbing ships as they came down the
river.
Moss and creeping vines covered the walls, Sam saw, and ravens walked its battlements in
place of archers. The drawbridge had not been raised in living memory.
It was cool and dim inside the castle walls. An ancient weirwood filled the yard, as it had since
these stones had first been raised. The carved face on its trunk was grown over by the same
purple moss that hung heavy from the trees pale limbs. Half of the branches seemed dead, but
elsewhere a few red leaves still rustled, and it was there the ravens liked to perch. The tree was
full of them, and there were more in the arched windows overhead, all around the yard. The
ground was speckled by their droppings. As they crossed the yard, one flapped overhead and he
heard the others quorking to each other. Archmaester Walgrave has his chambers in the west
tower, below the white rookery, Alleras told him. The white ravens and the black ones quarrel
like Dornishmen and Marchers, so they keep them apart.
Will Archmaester Walgrave understand what I am telling him? wondered Sam. You said his
wits were prone to wander.
He has good days and bad ones, said Alleras, but it is not Walgrave youre going to see. He
opened the door to the north tower and began to climb. Sam clambered up the steps behind him.
There were flutterings and mutterings from above, and here and there an angry scream, as the
ravens complained of being woken.
At the top of the steps, a pale blond youth about Sams age sat outside a door of oak and iron,
staring intently into a candle flame with his right eye. His left was hidden beneath a fall of ash
blond hair. What are you looking for? Alleras asked him. Your destiny? Your death?
The blond youth turned from the candle, blinking. Naked women, he said. Whos this now?
Samwell. A new novice, come to see the Mage.

The Citadel is not what it was, complained the blond. They will take anything these days.
Dusky dogs and Dornishmen, pig boys, cripples, cretins, and now a black-clad whale. And here I
thought leviathans were grey. A half cape striped in green and gold draped one shoulder. He
was very handsome, though his eyes were sly and his mouth cruel.
Sam knew him. Leo Tyrell. Saying the name made him feel as if he were still a boy of seven,
about to wet his smallclothes. I am Sam, from Horn Hill. Lord Randyll Tarlys son.
Truly? Leo gave him another look. I suppose you are. Your father told us all that you were
dead. Or was it only that he wished you were? He grinned. Are you still a craven?
No, lied Sam. Jon had made it a command. I went beyond the Wall and fought in battles.
They call me Sam the Slayer. He did not know why he said it. The words just tumbled out.
Leo laughed, but before he could reply the door behind him opened. Get in here, Slayer,
growled the man in the doorway. And you, Sphinx. Now.
Sam, said Alleras, this is Archmaester Marwyn.
Marwyn wore a chain of many metals around his bulls neck. Save for that, he looked more like
a dockside thug than a maester. His head was too big for his body, and the way it thrust forward
from his shoulders, together with that slab of jaw, made him look as if he were about to tear off
someones head. Though short and squat, he was heavy in the chest and shoulders, with a round,
rock-hard ale belly straining at the laces of the leather jerkin he wore in place of robes. Bristly
white hair sprouted from his ears and nostrils. His brow beetled, his nose had been broken more
than once, and sourleaf had stained his teeth a mottled red. He had the biggest hands that Sam
had ever seen.
When Sam hesitated, one of those hands grabbed him by the arm and yanked him through the
door. The room beyond was large and round. Books and scrolls were everywhere, strewn across
the tables and stacked up on the floor in piles four feet high. Faded tapestries and ragged maps
covered the stone walls. A fire was burning in the hearth, beneath a copper kettle. Whatever was
inside of it smelled burned. Aside from that, the only light came from a tall black candle in the
center of the room.
The candle was unpleasantly bright. There was something queer about it. The flame did not
flicker, even when Archmaester Marwyn closed the door so hard that papers blew off a nearby
table. The light did something strange to colors too. Whites were bright as fresh-fallen snow,
yellow shone like gold, reds turned to flame, but the shadows were so black they looked like
holes in the world. Sam found himself staring. The candle itself was three feet tall and slender as
a sword, ridged and twisted, glittering black. Is that... ?
... obsidian, said the other man in the room, a pale, fleshy, pasty-faced young fellow with
round shoulders, soft hands, close-set eyes, and food stains on his robes.
Call it dragonglass. Archmaester Marwyn glanced at the candle for a moment. It burns but is
not consumed.
What feeds the flame? asked Sam.
What feeds a dragons fire? Marwyn seated himself upon a stool. All Valyrian sorcery was
rooted in blood or fire. The sorcerers of the Freehold could see across mountains, seas, and

deserts with one of these glass candles. They could enter a mans dreams and give him visions,
and speak to one another half a world apart, seated before their candles. Do you think that might
be useful, Slayer?
We would have no more need of ravens.
Only after battles. The archmaester peeled a sourleaf off a bale, shoved it in his mouth, and
began to chew it. Tell me all you told our Dornish sphinx. I know much of it and more, but
some small parts may have escaped my notice.
He was not a man to be refused. Sam hesitated a moment, then told his tale again as Marywn,
Alleras, and the other novice listened. Maester Aemon believed that Daenerys Targaryen was
the fulfillment of a prophecy... her, not Stannis, nor Prince Rhaegar, nor the princeling whose
head was dashed against the wall.
Born amidst salt and smoke, beneath a bleeding star. I know the prophecy. Marwyn turned
his head and spat a gob of red phlegm onto the floor. Not that I would trust it. Gorghan of Old
Ghis once wrote that a prophecy is like a treacherous woman. She takes your member in her
mouth, and you moan with the pleasure of it and think, how sweet, how fine, how good this is...
and then her teeth snap shut and your moans turn to screams. That is the nature of prophecy, said
Gorghan. Prophecy will bite your prick off every time. He chewed a bit. Still...
Alleras stepped up next to Sam. Aemon would have gone to her if he had the strength. He
wanted us to send a maester to her, to counsel her and protect her and fetch her safely home.
Did he? Archmaester Marwyn shrugged. Perhaps its good that he died before he got to
Oldtown. Elsewise the grey sheep might have had to kill him, and that would have made the poor
old dears wring their wrinkled hands.
Kill him? Sam said, shocked. Why?
If I tell you, they may need to kill you too. Marywn smiled a ghastly smile, the juice of the
sourleaf running red between his teeth. Who do you think killed all the dragons the last time
around? Gallant dragonslayers armed with swords? He spat. The world the Citadel is building
has no place in it for sorcery or prophecy or glass candles, much less for dragons. Ask yourself
why Aemon Targaryen was allowed to waste his life upon the Wall, when by rights he should
have been raised to archmaester. His blood was why. He could not be trusted. No more than I
can.
What will you do? asked Alleras, the Sphinx.
Get myself to Slavers Bay, in Aemons place. The swan ship that delivered Slayer should
serve my needs well enough. The grey sheep will send their man on a galley, I dont doubt. With
fair winds I should reach her first. Marwyn glanced at Sam again, and frowned. You... you
should stay and forge your chain. If I were you, I would do it quickly. A time will come when
youll be needed on the Wall. He turned to the pasty-faced novice. Find Slayer a dry cell. Hell
sleep here, and help you tend the ravens.
B-b-but, Sam sputtered, the other archmaesters... the Seneschal... what should I tell them?
Tell them how wise and good they are. Tell them that Aemon commanded you to put yourself
into their hands. Tell them that you have always dreamed that one day you might be allowed to

wear the chain and serve the greater good, that service is the highest honor, and obedience the
highest virtue. But say nothing of prophecies or dragons, unless you fancy poison in your
porridge. Marwyn snatched a stained leather cloak off a peg near the door and tied it tight.
Sphinx, look after this one.
I will, Alleras answered, but the archmaester was already gone. They heard his boots
stomping down the steps.
Where has he gone? asked Sam, bewildered.
To the docks. The Mage is not a man who believes in wasting time. Alleras smiled. I have a
confession. Ours was no chance encounter, Sam. The Mage sent me to snatch you up before you
spoke to Theobald. He knew that you were coming.
How?
Alleras nodded at the glass candle.
Sam stared at the strange pale flame for a moment, then blinked and looked away. Outside the
window it was growing dark.
Theres an empty sleeping cell under mine in the west tower, with steps that lead right up to
Walgraves chambers, said the pasty-faced youth. If you dont mind the ravens quorking,
theres a good view of the Honeywine. Will that serve?
I suppose. He had to sleep somewhere.
I will bring you some woolen coverlets. Stone walls turn cold at night, even here.
My thanks. There was something about the pale, soft youth that he misliked, but he did not
want to seem discourteous, so he added, My names not Slayer, truly. Im Sam. Samwell
Tarly.
Im Pate, the other said, like the pig boy.

MEANWHILE, BACK ON THE WALL...
Hey, wait a minute! some of you may be saying about now. Wait a minute, wait a
minute! Wheres Dany and the dragons? Wheres Tyrion? We hardly saw Jon Snow. That cant
be all of it... .
Well, no. Theres more to come. Another book as big as this one.
I did not forget to write about the other characters. Far from it. I wrote lots about them. Pages
and pages and pages. Chapters and more chapters. I was still writing when it dawned on me that
the book had become too big to publish in a single volume... and I wasnt close to finished yet.
To tell all of the story that I wanted to tell, I was going to have to cut the book in two.
The simplest way to do that would have been to take what I had, chop it in half around the
middle, and end with To Be Continued. The more I thought about that, however, the more I
felt that the readers would be better served by a book that told all the story for half the characters,
rather than half the story for all the characters. So thats the route I chose to take.
Tyrion, Jon, Dany, Stannis and Melisandre, Davos Seaworth, and all the rest of the characters
you love or love to hate will be along next year (I devoutly hope) in A Dance with Dragons,
which will focus on events along the Wall and across the sea, just as the present book focused on
Kings Landing.
George R. R. Martin June 2005

APPENDIX
The Kings and Their Court
THE QUEEN REGENT
CERSEI LANNISTER, the First of Her Name, widow of {King Robert I Baratheon}, Queen Dowager, Protector of the Realm, Lady
of Casterly Rock, and Queen Regent,
Queen Cerseis children:
{KING JOFFREY I BARATHEON}, poisoned at his wedding feast, a boy of twelve,
PRINCESS MYRCELLA BARATHEON, a girl of nine, a ward of Prince Doran Martell at Sunspear,
KING TOMMEN I BARATHEON, a boy king of eight years,
his kittens, SER POUNCE, LADY WHISKERS, BOOTS,
Queen Cerseis brothers:
SER JAIME LANNISTER, her twin, called THE KINGSLAYER, Lord Commander of the Kingsguard,
TYRION LANNISTER, called THE IMP, a dwarf, accused and condemned for regicide and kinslaying,
PODRICK PAYNE, Tyrions squire, a boy of ten,
Queen Cerseis uncles, aunt, and cousins:
SER KEVAN LANNISTER, her uncle,
SER LANCEL, Ser Kevans son, her cousin, formerly King Roberts squire and Cerseis lover, newly raised to Lord of Darry,
{WILLEM}, Ser Kevans son, murdered at Riverrun,
MARTYN, twin to Willem, a squire,
JANEI, Ser Kevans daughter, a girl of three,
LADY GENNA LANNISTER, Cerseis aunt, m. Ser Emmon Frey,
{SER CLEOS FREY}, Gennas son, killed by outlaws,
SER TYWIN FREY, called TY, Cleoss son,
WILLEM FREY, Cleoss son, a squire,
SER LYONEL FREY, Lady Gennas second son,
{TION FREY}, Gennas son, murdered at Riverrun,
WALDER FREY, called RED WALDER, Lady Gennas youngest son, a page at Casterly Rock,
TYREK LANNISTER, Cerseis cousin, son of her fathers late brother Tygett,
LADY ERMESANDE HAYFORD, Tyreks child wife,
JOY HILL, bastard daughter of Queen Cerseis lost uncle Gerion, a girl of eleven,
CERENNA LANNISTER, Cerseis cousin, daughter of her late uncle Stafford, her mothers brother,
MYRIELLE LANNISTER, Cerseis cousin and Cerennas sister, daughter of her uncle Stafford,
SER DAVEN LANNISTER, her cousin, Staffords son,
SER DAMION LANNISTER, a more distant cousin, m. Shiera Crakehall,
SER LUCION LANNISTER, their son,
LANNA, their daughter, m. Lord Antario Jast,
LADY MARGOT, a cousin still more distant, m. Lord Titus Peake,
King Tommens small council:
{LORD TYWIN LANNISTER}, Hand of the King,
SER JAIME LANNISTER, Lord Commander of the Kingsguard,
SER KEVAN LANNISTER, master of laws,
VARYS, a eunuch, master of whisperers,
GRAND MAESTER PYCELLE, counselor and healer,
LORD MACE TYRELL, LORD MATHIS ROWAN, LORD PAXTER REDWYNE, counselors,

Tommens Kingsguard:
SER JAIME LANNISTER, Lord Commander,
SER MERYN TRANT,
SER BOROS BLOUNT, removed and thence restored,
SER BALON SWANN,
SER OSMUND KETTLEBLACK,
SER LORAS TYRELL, the Knight of Flowers,
SER ARYS OAKHEART, with Princess Myrcella in Dorne,
Cerseis household at Kings Landing:
LADY JOCELYN SWYFT, her companion,
SENELLE and DORCAS, her bedmaids and servingwomen,
LUM, RED LESTER, HOKE, called HORSELEG, SHORT-EAR, and PUCKENS, guardsmen,
QUEEN MARGAERY of House Tyrell, a maid of sixteen, widowed bride of King Joffrey I Baratheon and of Lord Renly
Baratheon before him,
Margaerys court at Kings Landing:
MACE TYRELL, Lord of Highgarden, her father
LADY ALERIE of House Hightower, her mother,
LADY OLENNA TYRELL, her grandmother, an aged widow called THE QUEEN OF THORNS,
ARRYK and ERRYK, Lady Olennas guards, twins seven feet tall called LEFT and RIGHT,
SER GARLAN TYRELL, Margaerys brother, THE GALLANT,
his wife, LADY LEONETTE of House Fossoway,
SER LORAS TYRELL, her youngest brother, the Knight of Flowers, a Sworn Brother of the Kingsguard,
Margaerys lady companions:
her cousins, MEGGA, ALLA, and ELINOR TYRELL,
Elinors betrothed, ALYN AMBROSE, squire,
LADY ALYSANNE BULWER, a girl of eight,
MEREDYTH CRANE, called MERRY,
LADY TAENA MERRYWEATHER,
LADY ALYCE GRACEFORD,
SEPTA NYSTERICA, a sister of the Faith,
PAXTER REDWYNE, Lord of the Arbor,
his twin sons, SER HORAS and SER HOBBER,
MAESTER BALLABAR, his healer and counselor,
MATHIS ROWAN, Lord of Goldengrove,
SER WILLAM WYTHERS, Margaerys captain of guards,
HUGH CLIFTON, a handsome young guardsman,
SER PORTIFER WOODWRIGHT and his brother, SER LUCANTINE,
Cerseis court at Kings Landing:
SER OSFRYD KETTLEBLACK and SER OSNEY KETTLEBLACK, younger brothers to Ser Osmund Kettleblack,
SER GREGOR CLEGANE, called THE MOUNTAIN THAT RIDES, dying painfully of a poisoned wound,
SER ADDAM MARBRAND, Commander of the City Watch of Kings Landing (the gold cloaks),
JALABHAR XHO, Prince of the Red Flower Vale, an exile from the Summer Isles,
GYLES ROSBY, Lord of Rosby, troubled by a cough,
ORTON MERRYWEATHER, Lord of Longtable,
TAENA, his wife, a woman of Myr,
LADY TANDA STOKEWORTH,
LADY FALYSE, her elder daughter and heir,
SER BALMAN BYRCH, Lady Falyses husband,
LADY LOLLYS, her younger daughter, great with child but weak of wit,

SER BRONN OF THE BLACKWATER, Lady Lollyss husband, a former sellsword,
{SHAE}, a camp follower serving as Lollyss bedmaid, strangled in Lord Tywins bed,
MAESTER FRENKEN, in Lady Tandas service,
SER ILYN PAYNE, the Kings Justice, a headsman,
RENNIFER LONGWATERS, chief undergaoler of the Red Keeps dungeons,
RUGEN, undergaoler for the black cells,
LORD HALLYNE THE PYROMANCER, a Wisdom of the Guild of Alchemists,
NOHO DIMITTIS, envoy from the Iron Bank of Braavos,
QYBURN, a necromancer, once a maester of the Citadel, more recently of the Brave Companions,
MOON BOY, the royal jester and fool,
PATE, a lad of eight, King Tommens whipping boy,
ORMOND OF OLDTOWN, the royal harper and bard,
SER MARK MULLENDORE, who lost a monkey and half an arm in the Battle of the Blackwater,
AURANE WATERS, the Bastard of Driftmark,
LORD ALESANDER STAEDMON, called PENNYLOVER,
SER RONNET CONNINGTON, called RED RONNET, the Knight of Griffins Roost,
SER LAMBERT TURNBERRY, SER DERMOT OF THE RAINWOOD, SER TALLAD called THE TALL, SER BAYARD
NORCROSS, SER BONIFER HASTY called BONIFER THE GOOD, SER HUGO VANCE, knights sworn to the Iron Throne,
SER LYLE CRAKEHALL called STRONGBOAR, SER ALYN STACKSPEAR, SER JON BETTLEY called BEARDLESS JON,
SER STEFFON SWYFT, SER HUMFREY SWYFT, knights sworn to Casterly Rock,
JOSMYN PECKLEDON, a squire and hero of the Blackwater,
GARRETT PAEGE and LEW PIPER, squires and hostages,
the people of Kings Landing:
THE HIGH SEPTON, Father of the Faithful, Voice of the Seven on Earth, an old man and frail,
SEPTON TORBERT, SEPTON RAYNARD, SEPTON LUCEON, SEPTON OLLIDOR, of the Most Devout, serving the Seven
at the Great Sept of Baelor,
SEPTA MOELLE, SEPTA AGLANTINE, SEPTA HELICENT, SEPTA UNELLA, of the Most Devout, serving the Seven at the
Great Sept of Baelor,
the sparrows, the humblest of men, fierce in their piety,
CHATAYA, proprietor of an expensive brothel,
ALAYAYA, her daughter,
DANCY, MAREI, two of Chatayas girls,
BRELLA, a servingwoman, lately in the service of Lady Sansa Stark,
TOBHO MOTT, a master armorer,
HAMISH THE HARPER, an aged singer,
ALARIC OF EYSEN, a singer, far-traveled,
WAT, a singer, styling himself THE BLUE BARD,
SER THEODAN WELLS, a pious knight, later called SER THEODAN THE TRUE.
King Tommens banner shows the crowned stag of Baratheon, black on gold, and the lion of Lannister, gold on crimson,
combatant.

THE KING AT THE WALL
STANNIS BARATHEON, the First of His Name, second son of Lord Steffon Baratheon and Lady Cassana of House Estermont,
Lord of Dragonstone, styling himself King of Westeros,
QUEEN SELYSE of House Florent, his wife, presently at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea,
PRINCESS SHIREEN, their daughter, a girl of eleven,
PATCHFACE, Shireens lackwit fool,
EDRIC STORM, his bastard nephew, King Roberts son by Lady Delena Florent, a boy of twelve, sailing the narrow sea on the
Mad Prendos,
SER ANDREW ESTERMONT, King Stanniss cousin, a kings man, commanding Edrics escort,
SER GERALD GOWER, LEWYS called THE FISHWIFE, SER TRISTON OF TALLY HILL, OMER BLACKBERRY, kings men,
Edrics guards and protectors,
Stanniss court at Castle Black:
LADY MELISANDRE OF ASSHAI, called THE RED WOMAN, a priestess of Rhllor, the Lord of Light,
MANCE RAYDER, King-Beyond-the-Wall, a captive condemned to death,
Rayders son by his wife {DALLA}, a newborn as yet unnamed, the wildling prince,
GILLY, the babes wet nurse, a wildling girl,
her son, another newborn as yet unnamed, fathered by her father {CRASTER},
SER RICHARD HORPE, SER JUSTIN MASSEY, SER CLAYTON SUGGS, SER GODRY FARRING, called GIANTSLAYER,
LORD HARWOOD FELL, SER CORLISS PENNY, queens men and knights,
DEVAN SEAWORTH and BRYEN FARRING, royal squires,
Stanniss court at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea:
SER DAVOS SEAWORTH, called THE ONION KNIGHT, Lord of the Rainwood, Admiral of the Narrow Sea, and Hand of the
King,
SER AXELL FLORENT, Queen Selyses uncle, foremost of the queens men,
SALLADHAR SAAN of Lys, a pirate and sellsail, master of the Valyrian and a fleet of galleys,
Stanniss garrison at Dragonstone:
SER ROLLAND STORM, called THE BASTARD OF NIGHTSONG, a kings man, castellan of Dragonstone,
MAESTER PYLOS, healer, tutor, counselor,
PORRIDGE and LAMPREY, two gaolers,
lords sworn to Dragonstone:
MONTERYS VELARYON, Lord of the Tides and Master of Driftmark, a boy of six,
DURAM BAR EMMON, Lord of Sharp Point, a boy of fifteen years,
Stanniss garrison at Storms End:
SER GILBERT FARRING, castellan of Storms End,
LORD ELWOOD MEADOWS, Ser Gilberts second,
MAESTER JURNE, Ser Gilberts counselor and healer,
lords sworn to Storms End:
ELDON ESTERMONT, Lord of Greenstone, uncle to King Stannis, great uncle to King Tommen, a cautious friend to both,
SER AEMON, Lord Eldons son and heir, with King Tommen in Kings Landing,
SER ALYN, Ser Aemons son, likewise with King Tommen in Kings Landing,
SER LOMAS, brother of Lord Eldon, uncle and supporter of King Stannis, at Storms End,
SER ANDREW, Ser Lomass son, protecting Edric Storm upon the narrow sea,
LESTER MORRIGEN, Lord of Crows Nest,
LORD LUCOS CHYTTERING, called LITTLE LUCOS, a youth of sixteen,
Davos Seaworth, Lord of the Rainwood,
MARYA, his wife, a carpenters daughter,
{DALE, ALLARD, MATTHOS, MARIC}, their four eldest sons, lost in the Battle of the Blackwater,
DEVAN, a squire with King Stannis at Castle Black,

STANNIS, a boy of ten years, with Lady Marya on Cape Wrath,
STEFFON, a boy of six years, with Lady Marya on Cape Wrath.
Stannis has taken for his banner the fiery heart of the Lord of Light; a red heart surrounded by orange flames upon a yellow field.
Within the heart is the crowned stag of House Baratheon, in black.

KING OF THE ISLES AND THE NORTH
The Greyjoys of Pyke claim descent from the Grey King of the Age of Heroes. Legend says the Grey King ruled the sea itself and
took a mermaid to wife. Aegon the Dragon ended the line of the last King of the Iron Islands, but allowed the ironborn to revive
their ancient custom and choose who should have the primacy among them. They chose Lord Vickon Greyjoy of Pyke. The
Greyjoy sigil is a golden kraken upon a black field. Their words are We Do Not Sow.
Balon Greyjoys first rebellion against the Iron Throne was put down by King Robert I Baratheon and Lord Eddard Stark of
Winterfell, but in the chaos following Roberts death Lord Balon named himself king once more, and sent his ships to attack the
north.
{BALON GREYJOY}, the Ninth of His Name Since the Grey King, King of the Iron Islands and the North, King of Salt and Rock,
Son of the Sea Wind, and Lord Reaper of Pyke, killed in a fall,
King Balons widow, QUEEN ALANNYS, of House Harlaw,
their children:
{RODRIK}, slain during Balons first rebellion,
{MARON}, slain during Balons first rebellion,
ASHA, their daughter, captain of the Black Wind and conquerer of Deepwood Motte,
THEON, styling himself the Prince of Winterfell, called by northmen THEON TURNCLOAK,
King Balons brothers and half brothers:
{HARLON}, died of greyscale in his youth,
{QUENTON}, died in infancy,
{DONEL}, died in infancy,
EURON, called Crows Eye, captain of the Silence,
VICTARION, Lord Captain of the Iron Fleet, master of the Iron Victory,
{URRIGON}, died of a wound gone bad,
AERON, called DAMPHAIR, a priest of the Drowned God,
RUS and NORJEN, two of his acolytes, the drowned men,
{ROBIN}, died in infancy,
King Balons household on Pyke:
MAESTER WENDAMYR, healer and counselor,
HELYA, keeper of the castle,
King Balons warriors and sworn swords:
DAGMER called CLEFTJAW, captain of Foamdrinker, commanding the ironborn at Torrhens Square,
BLUETOOTH, a longship captain,
ULLER, SKYTE, oarsmen and warriors,
CLAIMANTS TO THE SEASTONE CHAIR AT THE KINGSMOOT ON OLD WYK
GYLBERT FARWYND, Lord of the Lonely Light,
Gylberts champions: his sons GYLES, YGON, YOHN,
ERIK IRONMAKER, called ERIK ANVIL-BREAKER and ERIK THE JUST, an old man, once a famed captain and raider,
Eriks champions: his grandsons UREK, THORMOR, DAGON,
DUNSTAN DRUMM, The Drumm, the Bone Hand, Lord of Old Wyk,
Dunstans champions: his sons DENYS and DONNEL, and ANDRIK THE UNSMILING, a giant of a man,
ASHA GREYJOY, only daughter of Balon Greyjoy, captain of the Black Wind,
Ashas champions: QARL THE MAID, TRISTIFER BOTLEY, and SER HARRAS HARLAW
Ashas captains and supporters: LORD RODRIK HARLAW, LORD BAELOR BLACKTYDE, LORD MELDRED MERLYN,
HARMUND SHARP
VICTARION GREYJOY, brother to Balon Greyjoy, master of the Iron Victory and Lord Captain of the Iron Fleet,
Victarions champions: RED RALF STONEHOUSE, RALF THE LIMPER, and NUTE THE BARBER,

Victarions captains and supporters: HOTHO HARLAW, ALVYN SHARP, FRALEGG THE STRONG, ROMNY WEAVER, WILL
HUMBLE, LITTLE LENWOOD TAWNEY, RALF KENNING, MARON VOLMARK, GOROLD GOODBROTHER,
Victarions crewmen: WULF ONE-EAR, RAGNOR PYKE
Victarions bedmate, a certain dusky woman, mute and tongueless, a gift from his brother Euron,
EURON GREYJOY, called THE CROWS EYE, brother to Balon Greyjoy and captain of the Silence,
Eurons champions: GERMUND BOTLEY, LORD ORKWOOD OF ORKMONT, DONNOR SALTCLIFFE
Eurons captains and supporters: TORWOLD BROWNTOOTH, PINCHFACE JON MYRE, RODRIK FREEBORN, THE RED
OARSMAN, LEFT-HAND LUCAS CODD, QUELLON HUMBLE, HARREN HALF-HOARE, KEMMETT PYKE THE BASTARD,
QARL THE THRALL, STONEHAND, RALF THE SHEPHERD, RALF OF LORDSPORT
Eurons crewmen: CRAGORN
Balons bannermen, the Lords of the Iron Islands:
ON PYKE
{SAWANE BOTLEY}, Lord of Lordsport, drowned by Euron Crows Eye,
{HARREN}, his eldest son, killed at Moat Cailin,
TRISTIFER, his second son and rightful heir, dispossessed by his uncle,
SYMOND, HARLON, VICKON, and BENNARION, his younger sons, likewise dispossessed,
GERMUND, his brother, made Lord of Lordsport
Germunds sons, BALON and QUELLON,
SARGON and LUCIMORE, Sawanes half brothers,
WEX, a mute boy of twelve years, bastard son of Sargon, squire to Theon Greyjoy,
WALDON WYNCH, Lord of Iron Holt,
ON HARLAW
RODRIK HARLAW, called THE READER, Lord of Harlaw, Lord of Ten Towers, Harlaw of Harlaw,
LADY GWYNESSE, his elder sister,
LADY ALANNYS, his younger sister, widow of King Balon Greyjoy
SIGFRYD HARLAW, called SIGFRYD SILVERHAIR, his great uncle, master of Harlaw Hall,
HOTHO HARLAW, called HOTHO HUMPBACK, of the Tower of Glimmering, a cousin,
SER HARRAS HARLAW, called THE KNIGHT, the Knight of Grey Garden, a cousin,
BOREMUND HARLAW, called BOREMUND THE BLUE, master of Harridan Hill, a cousin,
Lord Rodriks bannermen and sworn swords:
MARON VOLMARK, Lord of Volmark,
MYRE, STONETREE, and KENNING,
Lord Rodriks household:
THREE-TOOTH, his steward, a crone,
ON BLACKTYDE
BAELOR BLACKTYDE, Lord of Blacktyde, captain of the Nightflyer,
BLIND BEN BLACKTYDE, a priest of the Drowned God,
ON OLD WYK
DUNSTAN DRUMM, The Drumm, captain of Thunderer,
NORNE GOODBROTHER, of Shatterstone,
THE STONEHOUSE,
TARLE, called TARLE THE THRICE-DROWNED, a priest of the Drowned God,
ON GREAT WYK
GOROLD GOODBROTHER, Lord of the Hammerhorn,
his sons, GREYDON, GRAN, and GORMOND, triplets,
his daughters, GYSELLA and GWIN,
MAESTER MURENMURE, tutor, healer, and counselor,

TRISTON FARWYND, Lord of Sealskin Point,
THE SPARR,
his son and heir, STEFFARION,
MELDRED MERLYN, Lord of Pebbleton,
ON ORKMONT
ORKWOOD OF ORKMONT,
LORD TAWNEY,
ON SALTCLIFFE
LORD DONNOR SALTCLIFFE,
LORD SUNDERLY
ON THE LESSER ISLANDS AND ROCKS
GYLBERT FARWYND, Lord of the Lonely Light,
THE OLD GREY GULL, a priest of the Drowned God.

OTHER HOUSES GREAT AND SMALL
HOUSE ARRYN
The Arryns are descended from the Kings of Mountain and Vale. Their sigil is a white moon-and-falcon upon a sky-blue field.
House Arryn has taken no part in the War of the Five Kings. Their Arryn words are As High as Honor.
ROBERT ARRYN, Lord of the Eyrie, Defender of the Vale, styled by his mother True Warden of the East, a sickly boy of eight
years, sometimes called SWEETROBIN,
his mother, {LADY LYSA of House Tully}, widow of Lord Jon Arryn, pushed from the Moon Door to her death,
his stepfather, PETYR BAELISH, called LITTLEFINGER, Lord of Harrenhal, Lord Paramount of the Trident, and Lord Protector
of the Vale,
ALAYNE STONE, Lord Petyrs natural daughter, a maid of three-and-ten, actually Sansa Stark,
SER LOTHOR BRUNE, a sellsword in Lord Petyrs service, the Eyries captain of guards,
OSWELL, a grizzled man-at-arms in Lord Petyrs service, sometimes called KETTLEBLACK,
Lord Roberts household at the Eyrie:
MARILLION, a handsome young singer much favored by Lady Lysa and accused of her murder,
MAESTER COLEMON, counselor, healer, and tutor,
MORD, a brutal gaoler with teeth of gold,
GRETCHEL, MADDY, and MELA, servingwomen,
Lord Roberts bannermen, the Lords of the Vale:
LORD NESTOR ROYCE, High Steward of the Vale and castellan of the Gates of the Moon,
SER ALBAR, Lord Nestors son and heir,
MYRANDA, called RANDA, Lord Nestors daughter, a widow, but scarce used,
Lord Nestors household:
SER MARWYN BELMORE, captain of guards,
MYA STONE, a mule tender and guide, bastard daughter of King Robert I Baratheon,
OSSY and CARROT, mule tenders,
LYONEL CORBRAY, Lord of Hearts Home,
SER LYN CORBRAY, his brother and heir, who wields the famed blade Lady Forlorn,
SER LUCAS CORBRAY, his younger brother,
JON LYNDERLY, Lord of the Snakewood,
TERRANCE, his son and heir, a young squire,
EDMUND WAXLEY, the Knight of Wickenden,
GEROLD GRAFTON, the Lord of Gulltown,
GYLES, his youngest son, a squire,
TRISTON SUNDERLAND, Lord of the Three Sisters,
GODRIC BORRELL, Lord of Sweetsister,
ROLLAND LONGTHORPE, Lord of Longsister,
ALESANDOR TORRENT, Lord of Littlesister,
the Lords Declarant, bannermen of House Arryn joined together in defense of young Lord Robert:
YOHN ROYCE, called BRONZE YOHN, Lord of Runestone, of the senior branch of House Royce,
SER ANDAR, Bronze Yohns sole surviving son, and heir to Runestone,
Bronze Yohns household:
MAESTER HELLIWEG, tutor, healer, counselor,
SEPTON LUCOS,
SER SAMWELL STONE, called STRONG SAM STONE, master-at-arms,
Bronze Yohns bannermen and sworn swords:
ROYCE COLDWATER, Lord of Coldwater Burn,
SER DAMON SHETT, Knight of Gull Tower,

UTHOR TOLLETT, Lord of the Grey Glen
ANYA WAYNWOOD, Lady of Ironoaks Castle,
SER MORTON, her eldest son and heir,
SER DONNEL, her second son, the Knight of the Gate,
WALLACE, her youngest son,
HARROLD HARDYNG, her ward, a squire oft called HARRY THE HEIR,
BENEDAR BELMORE, Lord of Strongsong,
SER SYMOND TEMPLETON, the Knight of Ninestars,
{EON HUNTER}, Lord of Longbow Hall, recently deceased,
SER GILWOOD, Lord Eons eldest son and heir, now called YOUNG LORD HUNTER,
SER EUSTACE, Lord Eons second son,
SER HARLAN, Lord Eons youngest son,
Young Lord Hunters household:
MAESTER WILLAMEN, counselor, healer, tutor,
HORTON REDFORT, Lord of Redfort, thrice wed,
SER JASPER, SER CREIGHTON, SER JON, his sons,
SER MYCHEL, his youngest son, a new-made knight, m. Ysilla Royce of Runestone,
clan chiefs from the Mountains of the Moon,
SHAGGA SON OF DOLF, OF THE STONE CROWS, presently leading a band in the kingswood,
TIMETT SON OF TIMETT, OF THE BURNED MEN,
CHELLA DAUGHTER OF CHEYK, OF THE BLACK EARS,
CRAWN SON OF CALOR, OF THE MOON BROTHERS.
HOUSE FLORENT
The Florents of Brightwater Keep are bannermen of Highgarden. At the outset of the War of the Five Kings, Lord Alester Florent
followed his liege lord in declaring for King Renly while his brother Ser Axell chose Stannis, husband to his niece Selyse. After
Renlys death, Lord Alester went over to Stannis as well, with all the strength of Brightwater. Stannis made Lord Alester his
Hand, and gave command of his fleet to Ser Imry Florent, his wifes brother. The fleet and Ser Imry both were lost in the Battle of
Blackwater, and Lord Alesters efforts to negotiate a peace after the defeat were regarded by King Stannis as treason. He was
given to the red priestess Melisandre, who burned him as a sacrifice to Rhllor.
The Iron Throne has also named the Florents traitors for their support of Stannis and his rebellion. They were attainted, and
Brightwater Keep and its lands were awarded to Ser Garlan Tyrell.
The sigil of House Florent shows a fox head in a circle of flowers.
{ALESTER FLORENT}, Lord of Brightwater, burned as a traitor,
his wife, LADY MELARA, of House Crane,
their children:
ALEKYNE, attainted Lord of Brightwater, fled to Oldtown to seek refuge at the Hightower,
LADY MELESSA, wed to Lord Randyll Tarly,
LADY RHEA, wed to Lord Leyton Hightower,
his siblings:
SER AXELL, a queens man, in service to his niece Queen Selyse at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea,
{SER RYAM}, died in a fall from a horse,
SELYSE, his daughter, wife and queen to King Stannis I Baratheon,
SHIREEN BARATHEON, her only child,
{SER IMRY}, his eldest son, killed in the Battle of the Blackwater,
SER ERREN, his second son, a captive at Highgarden,
SER COLIN, castellan at Brightwater Keep,

DELENA, his daughter, m. SER HOSMAN NORCROSS,
her natural son, EDRIC STORM, fathered by King Robert I Baratheon,
ALESTER NORCROSS, her eldest trueborn son, a boy of nine,
RENLY NORCROSS, her second trueborn son, a boy of three,
MAESTER OMER, Ser Colins eldest son, in service at Old Oak,
MERRELL, Ser Colins youngest son, a squire on the Arbor,
RYLENE, Lord Alesters sister, m. Ser Rycherd Crane.
HOUSE FREY
The Freys are bannermen to House Tully, but have not always been diligent in their duty. At the onset of the War of the Five
Kings, Robb Stark won Lord Walders allegiance by pledging to marry one of his daughters or granddaughters. When he wed
Lady Jeyne Westerling instead, the Freys conspired with Roose Bolton and murdered the Young Wolf and his followers at what
became known as the Red Wedding.
WALDER FREY, Lord of the Crossing,
by his first wife, {LADY PERRA, of House Royce}:
{SER STEVRON}, died after the Battle of Oxcross,
m. {Corenna Swann}, died of a wasting illness,
Stevrons eldest son, SER RYMAN, heir to the Twins,
Rymans son, EDWYN, wed to Janyce Hunter,
Edwyns daughter, WALDA, a girl of nine,
Rymans son, WALDER, called BLACK WALDER,
Rymans son, {PETYR}, called PETYR PIMPLE, hanged at Oldstones, m. Mylenda Caron,
Petyrs daughter, PERRA, a girl of five,
m. {Jeyne Lydden}, died in a fall from a horse,
Stevrons son, {AEGON}, called JINGLEBELL, killed at the Red Wedding by Catelyn Stark,
Stevrons daughter, {MAEGELLE}, died in childbed, m. Ser Dafyn Vance,
Maegelles daughter, MARIANNE VANCE, a maiden,
Maegelles son, WALDER VANCE, a squire,
Maegelles son, PATREK VANCE,
m. {Marsella Waynwood}, died in childbed,
Stevrons son, WALTON, m. Deana Hardyng,
Waltons son, STEFFON, called THE SWEET,
Waltons daughter, WALDA, called FAIR WALDA,
Waltons son, BRYAN, a squire,
SER EMMON, Lord Walders second son, m. Genna Lannister,
Emmons son, {SER CLEOS}, killed by outlaws near Maidenpool, m. Jeyne Darry,
Cleoss son, TYWIN, a squire of twelve,
Cleoss son, WILLEM, a page at Ashemark, ten,
Emmons son, SER LYONEL, m. Melesa Crakehall,
Emmons son, {TION}, a squire, murdered by Rickard Karstark while a captive at Riverrun,
Emmons son, WALDER, called RED WALDER, fourteen, a page at Casterly Rock,
SER AENYS, Lord Walders third son, m. {Tyana Wylde}, died in childbed,
Aenyss son, AEGON BLOODBORN, an outlaw,
Aenyss son, RHAEGAR, m. {Jeyne Beesbury}, died of a wasting illness,
Rhaegars son, ROBERT, a boy of thirteen,
Rhaegars daughter, WALDA, a girl of eleven, called WHITE WALDA,
Rhaegars son, JONOS, a boy of eight,

PERRIANE, Lord Walders daughter, m. Ser Leslyn Haigh,
Perrianes son, SER HARYS HAIGH,
Haryss son, WALDER HAIGH, a boy of five,
Perrianes son, SER DONNEL HAIGH,
Perrianes son, ALYN HAIGH, a squire,
by his second wife, {LADY CYRENNA, of House Swann}:
SER JARED, Lord Walders fourth son, m. {Alys Frey},
Jareds son, {SER TYTOS}, slain by Sandor Clegane during the Red Wedding, m. Zhoe Blanetree,
Tytoss daughter, ZIA, a maid of fourteen,
Tytoss son, ZACHERY, a boy of twelve sworn to the Faith, training at the Sept of Oldtown,
Jareds daughter, KYRA, m. {Ser Garse Goodbrook}, slain during the Red Wedding,
Kyras son, WALDER GOODBROOK, a boy of nine,
Kyras daughter, JEYNE GOODBROOK, six,
SEPTON LUCEON, in service at the Great Sept of Baelor,
by his third wife, {LADY AMAREI of House Crakehall}:
SER HOSTEEN, m. Bellena Hawick,
Hosteens son, SER ARWOOD, m. Ryella Royce,
Arwoods daughter, RYELLA, a girl of five,
Arwoods twin sons, ANDROW and ALYN, four,
Arwoods daughter, HOSTELLA, a newborn babe,
LYENTHE, Lord Walders daughter, m. Lord Lucias Vypren,
Lythenes daughter, ELYANA, m. Ser Jon Wylde,
Elyanas son, RICKARD WYLDE, four,
Lythenes son, SER DAMON VYPREN,
SYMOND, m. Betharios of Braavos,
Symonds son, ALESANDER, a singer,
Symonds daughter, ALYX, a maid of seventeen,
Symonds son, BRADAMAR, a boy of ten, a ward of Oro Tendyris, a merchant of Braavos,
SER DANWELL, Lord Walders eighth son, m. Wynafrei Whent,
{many stillbirths and miscarriages},
{MERRETT}, hanged at Oldstones, m. Mariya Darry,
Merretts daughter, AMEREI, called AMI, m. {Ser Pate of the Blue Fork, slain by Ser Gregor Clegane},
Merretts daughter, WALDA, called FAT WALDA, m. Roose Bolton, Lord of the Dreadfort,
Merretts daughter, MARISSA, a maid of thirteen,
Merretts son, WALDER, called LITTLE WALDER, eight, a squire in service to Ramsay Bolton,
{SER GEREMY}, drowned, m. Carolei Waynwood,
Geremys son, SANDOR, a boy of twelve, a squire,
Geremys daughter, CYNTHEA, a girl of nine, a ward of Lady Anya Waynwood,
SER RAYMUND, m. Beony Beesbury,
Raymunds son, ROBERT, an acolyte at the Citadel,
Raymunds son, MALWYN, serving with alchemist in Lys,
Raymunds twin daughters, SERRA and SARRA,
Raymunds daughter, CERSEI, called LITTLE BEE,
Raymunds twin sons, JAIME and TYWIN, newborn,
by his fourth wife, {LADY ALYSSA, of House Blackwood}:
LOTHAR, Lord Walders twelfth son, called LAME LOTHAR, m. Leonella Lefford,
Lothars daughter, TYSANE, a girl of seven,
Lothars daughter, WALDA, a girl of five,
Lothars daughter, EMBERLEI, a girl of three,

Lothars daughter, LEANA, a newborn babe,
SER JAMMOS, Lord Walders thirteenth son, m. Sallei Paege,
Jammoss son, WALDER, called BIG WALDER, eight, a squire in service to Ramsey Bolton,
Jammoss twin sons, DICKON and MATHIS, five,
SER WHALEN, Lord Walders fourteenth son, m. Sylwa Paege,
Whalens son, HOSTER, a squire of twelve, in service to Ser Damon Paege,
Whalens daughter, MERIANNE, called MERRY, eleven,
MORYA, Lord Walders daughter, m. Ser Flement Brax,
Moryas son, ROBERT BRAX, nine, a page at Casterly Rock,
Moryas son, WALDER BRAX, a boy of six,
Moryas son, JON BRAX, a babe of three,
TYTA, Lord Walders daughter, called TYTA THE MAID,
by his fifth wife, {LADY SARYA of House Whent}:
no progeny,
by his sixth wife, {LADY BETHANY of House Rosby}:
SER PERWYN, Lord Walders fifteenth son,
{SER BENFREY}, Lord Walders sixteenth son, died of a wound received at the Red Wedding, m. Jyanna Frey, a cousin,
Benfreys daughter, DELLA, called DEAF DELLA, a girl of three,
Benfreys son, OSMUND, a boy of two,
MAESTER WILLAMEN, Lord Walders seventeenth son, in service at Longbow Hall,
OLYVAR, Lord Walders eighteenth son, formerly a squire to Robb Stark,
ROSLIN, sixteen, m. Lord Edmure Tully at the Red Wedding,
by his seventh wife, {LADY ANNARA of House Farring}:
ARWYN, Lord Walders daughter, a maid of fourteen,
WENDEL, Lord Walders nineteenth son, thirteen, a page at Seagard,
COLMAR, Lord Walders twentieth son, eleven and promised to the Faith,
WALTYR, called TYR, Lord Walders twenty-first son, ten,
ELMAR, Lord Walders lastborn son, a boy of nine briefly betrothed to Arya Stark,
SHIREI, Lord Walders youngest child, a girl of seven,
his eighth wife, LADY JOYEUSE of House Erenford,
presently with child,
Lord Walders natural children, by sundry mothers,
WALDER RIVERS, called BASTARD WALDER,
Bastard Walders son, SER AEMON RIVERS,
Bastard Walders daughter, WALDA RIVERS,
MAESTER MELWYS, in service at Rosby,
JEYNE RIVERS, MARTYN RIVERS, RYGER RIVERS, RONEL RIVERS, MELLARA RIVERS, others
HOUSE HIGHTOWER
The Hightowers of Oldtown are among the oldest and proudest of the Great Houses of Westeros, tracing their descent back to
the First Men. Once kings, they have ruled Oldtown and its environs since the Dawn of Days, welcoming the Andals rather than
resisting them, and later bending the knee to the Kings of the Reach and giving up their crowns whilst retaining all their ancient
privileges. Though powerful and immensely wealthy, the Lords of the High Tower have traditionally preferred trade to battle, and
have seldom played a large part in the wars of Westeros. The Hightowers were instrumental in the founding of the Citadel and
continue to protect it to this day. Subtle and sophisticated, they have always been great patrons of learning and the Faith, and it
is said that certain of them have also dabbled in alchemy, necromancy, and other sorcerous arts.

The arms of House Hightower show a stepped white tower crowned with fire on a smoke-grey field. The House words are We
Light the Way.
LEYTON HIGHTOWER, Voice of Oldtown, Lord of the Port, Lord of the High Tower, Defender of the Citadel, Beacon of the
South, called THE OLD MAN OF OLDTOWN,
LADY RHEA of House Hightower, his fourth wife,
Lord Leytons eldest son and heir, SER BAELOR, called BAELOR BRIGHTSMILE, m. Rhonda Rowan,
Lord Leytons daughter, MALORA, called THE MAD MAID,
Lord Leytons daughter, ALERIE, m. Lord Mace Tyrell,
Lord Leytons son SER GARTH, called GREYSTEEL,
Lord Leytons daughter, DENYSE, m. Ser Desmond Redwyne,
her son, DENYS, a squire,
Lord Leytons daughter, LEYLA, m. Ser Jon Cupps,
Lord Leytons daughter, ALYSANNE, m. Lord Arthur Ambrose,
Lord Leytons daughter, LYNESSE, m. Lord Jorah Mormont, presently chief concubine to Tregar Ormollen of Lys,
Lord Leytons son, SER GUNTHOR, m. Jeyne Fossoway, of the green apple Fossoways,
Lord Leytons youngest son, SER HUMFREY,
Lord Leytons bannermen:
TOMMEN COSTAYNE, Lord of the Three Towers,
ALYSANNE BULWER, Lady of Blackcrown, a girl of eight,
MARTYN MULLENDORE, Lord of Uplands,
WARRYN BEESBURY, Lord of Honeyholt,
BRANSTON CUY, Lord of Sunflower Hall,
the people of Oldtown:
EMMA, a serving wench at the Quill and Tankard, where the women are willing and the cider is fearsomely strong,
ROSEY, her daughter, a girl of five-and-ten whose maidenhead will cost a golden dragon,
the Archmaesters of the Citadel:
ARCHMAESTER NORREN, Seneschal for the waning year, whose ring and rod and mask are electrum,
ARCHMAESTER THEOBALD, Seneschal for the coming year, whose ring and rod and mask are lead,
ARCHMAESTER EBROSE, the healer, whose ring and rod and mask are silver,
ARCHMAESTER MARWYN, called MARWYN THE MAGE, whose ring and rod and mask are Valyrian steel,
ARCHMAESTER PERESTAN, the historian, whose ring and rod and mask are copper,
ARCHMAESTER VAELLYN, called VINEGAR VAELLYN, the stargazer, whose ring and rod and mask are bronze,
ARCHMAESTER RYAM, whose ring and rod and mask are yellow gold,
ARCHMAESTER WALGRAVE, an old man of uncertain wit, whose ring and rod and mask are black iron,
GALLARD, CASTOS, ZARABELO, BENEDICT, GARIZON, NYMOS, CETHERES, WILLIFER, MOLLOS, HARODON,
GUYNE, AGRIVANE, OCLEY, archmaesters all,
maesters, acolytes, and novices of the Citadel:
MAESTER GORMON, who oft serves in Walgraves stead,
ARMEN, an acolyte of four links, called THE ACOLYTE,
ALLERAS, called THE SPHINX, an acolyte of three links, a devoted archer,
ROBERT FREY, sixteen, an acolyte of two links,
LORCAS, an acolyte of nine links, in service to the Seneschal,
LEO TYRELL, called LAZY LEO, a highborn novice,
MOLLANDER, a novice, born with a club foot,
PATE, who tends Archmaester Walgraves ravens, a novice of little promise,
ROONE, a young novice.
HOUSE LANNISTER

The Lannisters of Casterly Rock remain the principal support of King Tommens claim to the Iron Throne. They boast of descent
from Lann the Clever, the legendary trickster of the Age of Heroes. The gold of Casterly Rock and the Golden Tooth has made
them the wealthiest of the Great Houses. The Lannister sigil is a golden lion upon a crimson field. Their words are Hear Me Roar!
{TYWIN LANNISTER}, Lord of Casterly Rock, Shield of Lannisport, Warden of the West, and Hand of the King, murdered by his
dwarf son in his privy,
Lord Tywins children:
CERSEI, twin to Jaime, now Lady of Casterly Rock,
SER JAIME, twin to Cersei, called THE KINGSLAYER,
TYRION, called THE IMP, dwarf and kinslayer,
Lord Tywins siblings and their offspring:
SER KEVAN LANNISTER, m. Dorna of House Swyft,
LADY GENNA, m. Ser Emmon Frey, now Lord of Riverrun,
Gennas eldest son, {SER CLEOS FREY}, m. Jeyne of House Darry, killed by outlaws,
Cleoss eldest son, SER TYWIN FREY, called TY, now heir to Riverrun,
Cleoss second son, WILLEM FREY, a squire,
Gennas second son, SER LYONEL FREY,
Gennas third son, {TION FREY}, a squire, murdered while a captive at Riverrun,
Gennas youngest son, WALDER FREY, called RED WALDER, a page at Casterly Rock,
WHITESMILE WAT, a singer in service to Lady Genna,
{SER TYGETT LANNISTER}, died of a pox,
TYREK, Tygetts son, missing and feared dead,
LADY ERMESANDE HAYFORD, Tyreks child wife,
{GERION LANNISTER}, lost at sea,
JOY HILL, Gerions bastard daughter, eleven,
Lord Tywins other close kin:
{SER STAFFORD LANNISTER}, a cousin and brother to Lord Tywins wife, slain in battle at Oxcross,
CERENNA and MYRIELLE, Staffords daughters,
SER DAVEN LANNISTER, Staffords son,
SER DAMION LANNISTER, a cousin, m. Lady Shiera Crakehall,
their son, SER LUCION,
their daughter, LANNA, m. Lord Antario Jast,
LADY MARGOT, a cousin, m. Lord Titus Peake,
the household at Casterly Rock:
MAESTER CREYLEN, healer, tutor, and counselor,
VYLARR, captain of guards,
SER BENEDICT BROOM, master-at-arms,
WHITESMILE WAT, a singer,
bannermen and sworn swords, Lords of the West:
DAMON MARBRAND, Lord of Ashemark,
SER ADDAM MARBRAND, his son and heir, Commander of the City Watch of Kings Landing,
ROLAND CRAKEHALL, Lord of Crakehall,
Rolands brother, {SER BURTON}, slain by outlaws,
Rolands son and heir, SER TYBOLT,
Rolands son, SER LYLE, called STRONGBOAR,
Rolands youngest son, SER MERLON,
SEBASTON FARMAN, Lord of Fair Isle,
JEYNE, his sister, m. SER GARETH CLIFTON,
TYTOS BRAX, Lord of Hornvale,

SER FLEMENT BRAX, his brother and heir,
QUENTEN BANEFORT, Lord of Banefort,
SER HARYS SWYFT, good-father to Ser Kevan Lannister,
Ser Haryss son, SER STEFFON SWYFT,
Ser Steffons daughter, JOANNA,
Ser Haryss daughter, SHIERLE, m. Ser Melwyn Sarsfield,
REGENARD ESTREN, Lord of Wyndhall,
GAWEN WESTERLING, Lord of the Crag,
his wife, LADY SYBELL, of House Spicer,
her brother, SER ROLPH SPICER, newly raised to Lord of Castamere,
her cousin, SER SAMWELL SPICER,
their children:
SER RAYNALD WESTERLING,
JEYNE, widowed wife of Robb Stark,
ELEYNA, a girl of twelve,
ROLLAM, a boy of nine,
LORD SELMOND STACKSPEAR,
his son, SER STEFFON STACKSPEAR,
his younger son, SER ALYN STACKSPEAR,
TERRENCE KENNING, Lord of Kayce,
SER KENNOS OF KAYCE, a knight in his service,
LORD ANTARIO JAST,
LORD ROBIN MORELAND,
LADY ALYSANNE LEFFORD,
LEWYS LYDDEN, Lord of the Deep Den,
LORD PHILIP PLUMM,
his sons, SER DENNIS PLUMM, SER PETER PLUMM, and SER HARWYN PLUMM, called HARDSTONE,
LORD GARRISON PRESTER,
SER FORLEY PRESTER, his cousin,
SER GREGOR CLEGANE, called THE MOUNTAIN THAT RIDES,
SANDOR CLEGANE, his brother,
SER LORENT LORCH, a landed knight,
SER GARTH GREENFIELD, a landed knight,
SER LYMOND VIKARY, a landed knight,
SER RAYNARD RUTTIGER, a landed knight
SER MANFRYD YEW, a landed knight,
SER TYBOLT HETHERSPOON, a landed knight,
{MELARA HETHERSPOON}, his daughter, drowned in a well while a ward at Casterly Rock
HOUSE MARTELL
Dorne was the last of the Seven Kingdoms to swear fealty to the Iron Throne. Blood, custom, geography, and history all helped
to set the Dornishmen apart from the other kingdoms. At the outbreak of the War of the Five Kings Dorne took no part, but when
Myrcella Baratheon was betrothed to Prince Trystane, Sunspear declared its support for King Joffrey. The Martell banner is a red
sun pierced by a golden spear. Their words are Unbowed, Unbent, Unbroken.
DORAN NYMEROS MARTELL, Lord of Sunspear, Prince of Dorne,
his wife, MELLARIO, of the Free City of Norvos,
their children:

PRINCESS ARIANNE, heir to Sunspear,
GARIN, Ariannes milk brother and companion, of the orphans of the Greenblood,
PRINCE QUENTYN, a new-made knight, long fostered by Lord Yronwood of Yronwood,
PRINCE TRYSTANE, betrothed to Myrcella Baratheon,
Prince Dorans siblings:
{PRINCESS ELIA, raped and murdered during the Sack of Kings Landing},
{RHAENYS TARGARYEN}, her young daughter, murdered during the Sack of Kings Landing,
{AEGON TARGARYEN}, a babe at the breast, murdered during the Sack of Kings Landing,
{PRINCE OBERYN}, called THE RED VIPER, slain by Ser Gregor Clegane during a trial by combat,
ELLARIA SAND, Prince Oberyns paramour, natural daughter of Lord Harmen Uller,
THE SAND SNAKES, Oberyns bastard daughters:
OBARA, eight-and-twenty, Oberyns daughter by an Oldtown whore,
NYMERIA, called LADY NYM, five-and-twenty, his daughter by a noblewoman of Volantis,
TYENE, three-and-twenty, Oberyns daughter by a septa,
SARELLA, nineteen, his daughter by a trader, captain of the Feathered Kiss,
ELIA, fourteen, his daughter by Ellaria Sand,
OBELLA, twelve, his daughter by Ellaria Sand,
DOREA, eight, his daughter by Ellaria Sand,
LOREZA, six, his daughter by Ellaria Sand,
Prince Dorans court, at the Water Gardens:
AREO HOTAH, of Norvos, captain of the guards,
MAESTER CALEOTTE, counselor, healer, and tutor,
threescore children of both high and common birth, sons and daughters of lords, knights, orphans, merchants, craftsmen, and
peasants, his wards,
Prince Dorans court, at Sunspear:
PRINCESS MYRCELLA BARATHEON, his ward, betrothed to Prince Trystane,
SER ARYS OAKHEART, Myrcellas sworn shield,
ROSAMUND LANNISTER, Myrcellas bedmaid and companion, a distant cousin,
SEPTA EGLANTINE, Myrcellas confessor,
MAESTER MYLES, counselor, healer, and tutor,
RICASSO, Seneschal at Sunspear, old and blind,
SER MANFREY MARTELL, castellan at Sunspear
LADY ALYSE LADYBRIGHT, lord treasurer,
SER GASCOYNE of the Greenblood, Prince Trystanes sworn shield,
BORS and TIMOTH, serving men at Sunspear,
BELANDRA, CEDRA, the sisters MORRA and MELLEI, servingwomen at Sunspear,
Prince Dorans bannermen, the Lords of Dorne:
ANDERS YRONWOOD, Lord of Yronwood, Warden of the Stone Way, the Bloodroyal,
SER CLETUS, his son, known for a lazy eye,
MAESTER KEDRY, healer, tutor, and counselor,
HARMEN ULLER, Lord of Hellholt,
ELLARIA SAND, his natural daughter,
SER ULWYCK ULLER, his brother,
DELONNE ALLYRION, Lady of Godsgrace,
SER RYON, her son and heir,
SER DAEMON SAND, Ryons natural son, the Bastard of Godsgrace,
DAGOS MANWOODY, Lord of Kingsgrave,
MORS and DICKON, his sons,
SER MYLES, his brother,

LARRA BLACKMONT, Lady of Blackmont,
JYNESSA, her daughter and heir,
PERROS, her son, a squire,
NYMELLA TOLAND, Lady of Ghost Hill,
QUENTYN QORGYLE, Lord of Sandstone,
SER GULIAN, his eldest son and heir
SER ARRON, his second son,
SER DEZIEL DALT, the Knight of Lemonwood,
SER ANDREY, his brother and heir, called DREY,
FRANKLYN FOWLER, Lord of Skyreach, called THE OLD HAWK, the Warden of the Princes Pass,
JEYNE and JENNELYN, his twin daughters,
SER SYMON SANTAGAR, the Knight of Spottswood,
SYLVA, his daughter and heir, called SPOTTED SYLVA for her freckles,
EDRIC DAYNE, Lord of Starfall, a squire,
SER GEROLD DAYNE, called DARKSTAR, the Knight of High Hermitage, his cousin and bannerman,
TREBOR JORDAYNE, Lord of the Tor,
MYRIA, his daughter and heir,
TREMOND GARGALEN, Lord of Salt Shore,
DAERON VAITH, Lord of the Red Dunes.
HOUSE STARK
The Starks trace their descent from Brandon the Builder and the Kings of Winter. For thousands of years, they ruled from
Winterfell as Kings in the North, until Torrhen Stark, the King Who Knelt, chose to swear fealty to Aegon the Dragon rather than
give battle. When Lord Eddard Stark of Winterfell was executed by King Joffrey, the northmen foreswore their loyalty to the Iron
Throne and proclaimed Lord Eddards son Robb as King in the North. During the War of the Five Kings, he won every battle, but
was betrayed and murdered by the Freys and Boltons at the Twins during his uncles wedding.
{ROBB STARK}, King in the North, King of the Trident, Lord of Winterfell, eldest son of Lord Eddard Stark and Lady Catelyn of
House Tully, a youth of sixteen called THE YOUNG WOLF, murdered at the Red Wedding,
{GREY WIND}, his direwolf, killed at the Red Wedding,
his trueborn siblings:
SANSA, his sister, m. Tyrion of House Lannister,
{LADY}, her direwolf, killed at Castle Darry,
ARYA, a girl of eleven, missing and thought dead,
NYMERIA, her direwolf, prowling the riverlands,
BRANDON, called BRAN, a crippled boy of nine, heir to Winterfell, believed dead,
SUMMER, his direwolf,
Brans companions and protectors:
MEERA REED, a maid of sixteen, daughter of Lord Howland Reed of Greywater Watch,
JOJEN REED, her brother, thirteen,
HODOR, a simple boy, seven feet tall,
RICKON, a boy of four, believed dead,
SHAGGYDOG, his direwolf, black and savage,
Rickons companion, OSHA, a wildling once captive at Winterfell,
his bastard half brother, JON SNOW, of the Nights Watch,
GHOST, Jons direwolf, white and silent,
Robbs sworn swords:

{DONNEL LOCKE, OWEN NORREY, DACEY MORMONT, SER WENDEL MANDERLY, ROBIN FLINT}, slain at the Red
Wedding,
HALLIS MOLLEN, captain of the guards, escorting Eddard Starks bones back to Winterfell,
JACKS, QUENT, SHADD, guardsmen,
Robbs uncles and cousins:
BENJEN STARK, his fathers younger brother, lost ranging beyond the Wall, presumed dead,
{LYSA ARRYN}, his mothers sister, Lady of the Eyrie, m. Lord Jon Arryn, slain with a shove,
their son, ROBERT ARRYN, Lord of the Eyrie and Defender of the Vale, a sickly boy,
EDMURE TULLY, Lord of Riverrun, his mothers brother, taken captive at the Red Wedding,
LADY ROSLIN, of House Frey, Edmures bride,
SER BRYNDEN TULLY, called THE BLACKFISH, his mothers uncle, castellan of Riverrun,
the Young Wolfs bannermen, the Lords of the North:
ROOSE BOLTON, Lord of the Dreadfort, the turncloak,
{DOMERIC}, his trueborn son and heir, died of a bad belly,
RAMSAY BOLTON (formerly RAMSAY SNOW), Rooses natural son, called THE BASTARD OF BOLTON, castellan of the
Dreadfort,
WALDER FREY and WALDER FREY, called BIG WALDER and LITTLE WALDER, Ramsays squires,
{REEK}, a man-at-arms infamous for his stench, slain while posing as Ramsay,
ARYA STARK, Lord Rooses captive, a feigned girl betrothed to Ramsay,
WALTON called STEELSHANKS, Rooses captain,
BETH CASSELL, KYRA, TURNIP, PALLA, BANDY, SHYRA, PALLA, and OLD NAN, women of Winterfell held captive at the
Dreadfort,
JON UMBER, called THE GREATJON, Lord of the Last Hearth, a captive at the Twins,
{JON}, called THE SMALLJON, the Greatjons eldest son and heir, slain at the Red Wedding,
MORS called CROWFOOD, uncle to the Greatjon, castellan at the Last Hearth,
HOTHER called WHORESBANE, uncle to the Greatjon, likewise castellan at the Last Hearth,
{RICKARD KARSTARK}, Lord of Karhold, beheaded for treason and murder of prisoner,
{EDDARD}, his son, slain in the Whispering Wood,
{TORRHEN} his son, slain in the Whispering Wood,
HARRION, his son, a captive at Maidenpool,
ALYS, Lord Rickards daughter, a maid of fifteen,
Rickards uncle, ARNOLF, castellan of Karhold,
GALBART GLOVER, Master of Deepwood Motte, unwed,
ROBETT GLOVER, his brother and heir,
Robetts wife, SYBELLE of House Locke,
their children:
GAWEN, a boy of three,
ERENA, a babe at the breast,
Galbarts ward, LARENCE SNOW, natural son of {Lord Halys Hornwood}, a boy of thirteen,
HOWLAND REED, Lord of Greywater Watch, a crannogman,
his wife, JYANA, of the crannogmen,
their children:
MEERA, a young huntress,
JONJEN, a boy blessed with green sight,
WYMAN MANDERLY, Lord of White Harbor, vastly fat,
SER WYLIS MANDERLY, his eldest son and heir, very fat, a captive at Harrenhal,
Wyliss wife, LEONA of House Woolfield,
WYNAFRYD, their daughter, a maid of nineteen years,
WYLLA, their daughter, a maid of fifteen,

{SER WENDEL MANDERLY}, his second son, slain at the Red Wedding,
SER MARLON MANDERLY, his cousin, commander of the garrison at White Harbor,
MAESTER THEOMORE, counselor, tutor, healer,
MAEGE MORMONT, Lady of Bear Island,
{DACEY}, her eldest daughter and heir, slain at the Red Wedding,
ALYSANE, LYRA, JORELLE, LYANNA, her daughters,
{JEOR MORMONT}, her brother, Lord Commander of the Nights Watch, slain by own men,
SER JORAH MORMONT, Lord Jeors son, once Lord of Bear Island in his own right, a knight condemned and exiled,
{SER HELMAN TALLHART}, Master of Torrhens Square, slain at Duskendale,
{BENFRED}, his son and heir, slain by ironmen on the Stony Shore,
EDDARA, his daughter, captive at Torrhens Square,
{LEOBALD}, his brother, killed at Winterfell,
Leobalds wife, BERENA of House Hornwood, captive at Torrhens Square,
their sons, BRANDON and BEREN, likewise captives at Torrhens Square,
RODRIK RYSWELL, Lord of the Rills,
BARBREY DUSTIN, his daughter, Lady of Barrowton, widow of {Lord Willam Dustin},
HARWOOD STOUT, her liege man, a petty lord at Barrowton,
{BETHANY BOLTON}, his daughter, second wife of Lord Roose Bolton, died of a fever,
ROGER RYSWELL, RICKARD RYSWELL, ROOSE RYSWELL, his quarrelsome cousins and bannermen,
{CLEY CERWYN}, Lord of Cerwyn, killed at Winterfell,
JONELLE, his sister, a maid of two-and-thirty,
LYESSA FLINT, Lady of Widows Watch,
ONDREW LOCKE, Lord of Oldcastle, an old man,
HUGO WULL, called BIG BUCKET, chief of his clan,
BRANDON NORREY, called THE NORREY, chief of his clan,
TORREN LIDDLE, called THE LIDDLE, chief of his clan.
The Stark arms show a grey direwolf racing across an ice-white field. The Stark words are Winter Is Coming.
HOUSE TULLY
Lord Edmyn Tully of Riverrun was one of the first of the river lords to swear fealty to Aegon the Conquerer. King Aegon rewarded
him by raising House Tully to dominion over all the lands of the Trident. The Tully sigil is a leaping trout, silver, on a field of
rippling blue and red. The Tully words are Family, Duty, Honor.
EDMURE TULLY, Lord of Riverrun, taken captive at his wedding and held prisoner by the Freys,
LADY ROSLIN of House Frey, Edmures young bride,
{LADY CATELYN STARK}, his sister, widow of Lord Eddard Stark of Winterfell, slain at the Red Wedding,
{LADY LYSA ARRYN}, his sister, widow of Lord Jon Arryn of the Vale, pushed to her death from the Eyrie,
SER BRYNDEN TULLY, called THE BLACKFISH, Edmures uncle, castellan of Riverrun,
Lord Edmures household at Riverrun:
MAESTER VYMAN, counselor, healer, and tutor,
SER DESMOND GRELL, master-at-arms,
SER ROBIN RYGER, captain of the guard,
LONG LEW, ELWOOD, DELP, guardsmen,
UTHERYDES WAYN, steward of Riverrun,
Edmures bannermen, the Lords of the Trident:
TYTOS BLACKWOOD, Lord of Raventree Hall,
{LUCAS}, his son, slain at the Red Wedding,
JONOS BRACKEN, Lord of the Stone Hedge,

JASON MALLISTER, Lord of Seagard, a prisoner in his own castle,
PATREK, his son, imprisoned with his father,
SER DENYS MALLISTER, Lord Jasons uncle, a man of the Nights Watch,
CLEMENT PIPER, Lord of Pinkmaiden Castle,
his son and heir, SER MARQ PIPER, taken captive at the Red Wedding,
KARYL VANCE, Lord of Wayfarers Rest,
his elder daughter and heir, LIANE,
his younger daughters, RHIALTA and EMPHYRIA,
NORBERT VANCE, the blind Lord of Atranta,
his eldest son and heir, SER RONALD VANCE, called THE BAD,
his younger sons, SER HUGO, SER ELLERY, SER KIRTH, and MAESTER JON,
THEOMAR SMALLWOOD, Lord of Acorn Hall,
his wife, LADY RAVELLA, of House Swann,
their daughter, CARELLEN,
WILLIAM MOOTON, Lord of Maidenpool,
SHELLA WHENT, dispossessed Lady of Harrenhal,
SER WILLIS WODE, a knight in her service,
SER HALMON PAEGE,
LORD LYMOND GOODBROOK.
HOUSE TYRELL
The Tyrells rose to power as stewards to the Kings of the Reach, though they claim descent from Garth Greenhand, gardener
king of the First Men. When the last king of House Gardener was slain on the Field of Fire, his steward Harlen Tyrell surrendered
Highgarden to Aegon the Conquerer. Aegon granted him the castle and dominion over the Reach. Mace Tyrell declared his
support for Renly Baratheon at the onset of the War of the Five Kings, and gave him the hand of his daughter Margaery. Upon
Renlys death, Highgarden made alliance with House Lannister, and Margaery was betrothed to King Joffrey.
MACE TYRELL, Lord of Highgarden, Warden of the South, Defender of the Marches, and High Marshal of the Reach,
his wife, LADY ALERIE, of House Hightower of Oldtown,
their children:
WILLAS, their eldest son, heir to Highgarden,
SER GARLAN, called THE GALLANT, their second son, newly raised to Lord of Brightwater,
Garlans wife, LADY LEONETTE of House Fossoway,
SER LORAS, the Knight of Flowers, their youngest son, a Sworn Brother of the Kingsguard,
MARGAERY, their daughter, twice wed and twice widowed,
Margaerys companions and ladies-in-waiting:
her cousins, MEGGA, ALLA, and ELINOR TYRELL,
Elinors betrothed, ALYN AMBROSE, squire,
LADY ALYSANNE BULWER, LADY ALYCE GRACEFORD, LADY TAENA MERRYWEATHER, MEREDYTH CRANE called
MERRY, SEPTA NYSTERICA, her companions,
Maces widowed mother, LADY OLENNA of House Redwyne, called THE QUEEN OF THORNS,
ARRYK and ERRYK, her guardsmen, twins seven feet tall called LEFT and RIGHT,
Maces sisters:
LADY MINA, wed to Paxter Redwyne, Lord of the Arbor,
their children:
SER HORAS REDWYNE, twin to Hobber, called HORROR,
SER HOBBER REDWYNE, twin to Horas, called SLOBBER,
DESMERA REDWYNE, a maid of sixteen,

LADY JANNA, wed to Ser Jon Fossoway,
Maces uncles and cousins:
Maces uncle, GARTH, called THE GROSS, Lord Seneschal of Highgarden,
Garths bastard sons, GARSE and GARRETT FLOWERS,
Maces uncle, SER MORYN, Lord Commander of the City Watch of Oldtown,
Moryns son, {SER LUTHOR}, m. Lady Elyn Norridge,
Luthors son, SER THEODORE, m. Lady Lia Serry,
Theodores daughter, ELINOR,
Theodores son, LUTHOR, a squire,
Luthors son, MAESTER MEDWICK,
Luthors daughter, OLENE, m. Ser Leo Blackbar,
Moryns son, LEO, called LEO THE LAZY, a novice at the Citadel of Oldtown,
Maces uncle, MAESTER GORMON, serving at the Citadel,
Maces cousin, {SER QUENTIN}, died at Ashford,
Quentins son, SER OLYMER, m. Lady Lysa Meadows,
Olymers sons, RAYMUND and RICKARD,
Olymers daughter, MEGGA,
Maces cousin, MAESTER NORMUND, in service at Blackcrown,
Maces cousin, {SER VICTOR}, slain by the Smiling Knight of the Kingswood Brotherhood,
Victors daughter, VICTARIA, m. {Lord Jon Bulwer}, died of a summer fever,
their daughter, LADY ALYSANNE BULWER, eight,
Victors son, SER LEO, m. Lady Alys Beesbury,
Leos daughters, ALLA and LEONA,
Leos sons, LYONEL, LUCAS, and LORENT,
Maces household at Highgarden:
MAESTER LOMYS, counselor, healer, and tutor,
IGON VYRWEL, captain of the guard,
SER VORTIMER CRANE, master-at-arms,
BUTTERBUMPS, fool and jester, hugely fat,
his bannermen, the Lords of the Reach:
RANDYLL TARLY, Lord of Horn Hill,
PAXTER REDWYNE, Lord of the Arbor,
SER HORAS and SER HOBBER, his twin sons,
Lord Paxters healer, MAESTER BALLABAR,
ARWYN OAKHEART, Lady of Old Oak,
Lady Arwyns youngest son, SER ARYS, a Sworn Brother of the Kingsguard,
MATHIS ROWAN, Lord of Goldengrove, m. Bethany of House Redwyne,
LEYTON HIGHTOWER, Voice of Oldtown, Lord of the Port,
HUMFREY HEWETT, Lord of Oakenshield,
FALIA FLOWERS, his bastard daughter,
OSBERT SERRY, Lord of Southshield,
SER TALBERT, his son and heir,
GUTHOR GRIMM, Lord of Greyshield,
MORIBALD CHESTER, Lord of Greenshield,
ORTON MERRYWEATHER, Lord of Longtable,
LADY TAENA, his wife, a woman of Myr,
RUSSELL, her son, a boy of eight,
LORD ARTHUR AMBROSE, m. Lady Alysanne Hightower,
his knights and sworn swords:

SER JON FOSSOWAY, of the green-apple Fossoways,
SER TANTON FOSSOWAY, of the red-apple Fossoways.
The Tyrell sigil is a golden rose on a grass-green field. Their words are Growing Strong.

REBELS AND ROGUES SMALLFOLK AND SWORN BROTHERS
LORDLINGS, WANDERERS, AND COMMON MEN
SER CREIGHTON LONGBOUGH and SER ILLIFER THE PENNILESS, hedge knights and companions,
HIBALD, a merchant fearful and niggardly,
SER SHADRICK OF THE SHADY GLEN, called THE MAD MOUSE, a hedge knight in Hibalds service,
BRIENNE, THE MAID OF TARTH, also called BRIENNE THE BEAUTY, a maiden on a quest,
LORD SELWYN THE EVENSTAR, Lord of Tarth, her father,
{BIG BEN BUSHY}, SER HYLE HUNT, SER MARK MULLENDORE, SER EDMUND AMBROSE, {SER RICHARD FARROW},
{WILL THE STORK}, SER HUGH BEESBURY, SER RAYMOND NAYLAND, HARRY SAWYER, SER OWEN INCHFIELD,
ROBIN POTTER, her onetime suitors,
RENFRED RYKKER, Lord of Duskendale,
SER RUFUS LEEK, a one-legged knight in his service, castellan of the Dun Fort at Duskendale,
WILLIAM MOOTON, Lord of Maidenpool,
ELEANOR, his eldest daughter and heir, thirteen,
RANDYLL TARLY, Lord of Horn Hill, commanding King Tommens forces along the Trident,
DICKON, his son and heir, a young squire,
SER HYLE HUNT, sworn to the service of House Tarly,
SER ALYN HUNT, Ser Hyles cousin, likewise in Lord Randylls service,
DICK CRABB, called NIMBLE DICK, a Crabb of Crackclaw Point,
EUSTACE BRUNE, Lord of the Dyre Den,
BENNARD BRUNE, the Knight of Brownhollow, his cousin,
SER ROGER HOGG, the Knight of Sows Horn,
SEPTON MERIBALD, a barefoot septon,
his dog, DOG,
THE ELDER BROTHER, of the Quiet Isle,
BROTHER NARBERT, BROTHER GILLAM, BROTHER RAWNEY, pentitent brothers of the Quiet Isle,
SER QUINCY COX, the Knight of Saltpans, an old man in his dotage,
at the old crossroads inn:
JEYNE HEDDLE, called LONG JEYNE, innkeep, a tall young wench of eighteen years,
WILLOW, her sister, stern with a spoon,
TANSY, PATE, JON PENNY, BEN, orphans at the inn,
GENDRY, an apprentice smith and bastard son of King Robert I Baratheon, ignorant of his birth,
at Harrenhal,
RAFFORD called RAFF THE SWEETLING, SHITMOUTH, DUNSEN, men of the garrison,
BEN BLACKTHUMB, a smith and armorer,
PIA, a serving wench, once pretty,
MAESTER GULIAN, healer, tutor, and counselor,
at Darry,
LADY AMEREI FREY, called GATEHOUSE AMI, an amorous young widow betrothed to Lord Lancel Lannister,
Lady Amereis mother, LADY MARIYA of House Darry, widowed wife of Merrett Frey,
Lady Amereis sister, MARISSA, a maid of thirteen,
SER HARWYN PLUMM, called HARDSTONE, commander of the garrison,
MAESTER OTTOMORE, healer, tutor, and advisor,
at the Inn of the Kneeling Man:
SHARNA, the innkeep, a cook and midwife,
her husband, called HUSBAND,
BOY, an orphan of the war,
HOT PIE, a bakers boy, now orphaned.

OUTLAWS AND BROKEN MEN
{BERIC DONDARRION}, once Lord of Blackhaven, six times slain,
EDRIC DAYNE, Lord of Starfall, a boy of twelve, Lord Berics squire,
THE MAD HUNTSMAN of Stoney Sept, his sometime ally,
GREENBEARD, a Tyroshi sellsword, his uncertain friend,
ANGUY THE ARCHER, a bowman from the Dornish Marches,
MERRIT O MOONTOWN, WATTY THE MILLER, SWAMPY MEG, JON O NUTTEN, outlaws in his band,
LADY STONEHEART, a hooded woman, sometimes called MOTHER MERCY, THE SILENT SISTER, and THE HANGWOMAN,
LEM, called LEM LEMONCLOAK, a onetime soldier,
THOROS OF MYR, a red priest,
HARWIN, son of Hullen, a northman once in service to Lord Eddard Stark of Winterfell,
JACK-BE-LUCKY, a wanted man, short an eye,
TOM OF SEVENSTREAMS, a singer of dubious report, called TOM SEVENSTRINGS and TOM O SEVENS,
LIKELY LUKE, NOTCH, MUDGE, BEARDLESS DICK, outlaws,
SANDOR CLEGANE, called THE HOUND, once King Joffreys sworn shield, later a Sworn Brother of the Kingsguard, last seen
feverish and dying beside the Trident,
{VARGO HOAT} of the Free City of Qohor, called THE GOAT,
a sellsword captain of slobbery speech, slain at
Harrenhal by Ser Gregor Clegane,
his Brave Companions, also called the Bloody Mummers:
URSWYCK called FAITHFUL, his lieutenant,
{SEPTON UTT}, hanged by Lord Beric Dondarrion,
TIMEON OF DORNE, FAT ZOLLO, RORGE, BITER, PYG, SHAGWELL THE FOOL, TOGG JOTH of Ibben, THREE TOES,
scattered and running,
at the Peach, a brothel in Stoney Sept:
TANSY, the red-haired proprietor,
ALYCE, CASS, LANNA, JYZENE, HELLY, BELLA, some of her peaches,
at Acorn Hall, the seat of House Smallwood:
LADY RAVELLA, formerly of House Swann, wife to Lord Theomar Smallwood,
here and there and elsewhere:
LORD LYMOND LYCHESTER, an old man of wandering wit, who once held Ser Maynard at the bridge,
his young caretaker, MAESTER ROONE,
the ghost of High Heart,
the Lady of the Leaves,
the septon at Sallydance.
THE SWORN BROTHERS OF THE NIGHTS WATCH
JON SNOW, the Bastard of Winterfell, nine-hundred-and-ninety- eighth Lord Commander of the Nights Watch,
GHOST, his white direwolf,
his steward, EDDISON TOLLETT, called DOLOROUS EDD,
THE MEN OF CASTLE BLACK
BENJEN STARK, First Ranger, long missing, presumed dead,
SER WYNTON STOUT, an aged ranger, feeble of wit,
KEDGE WHITEYE, BEDWYCK called GIANT, MATTHAR, DYWEN, GARTH GREYFEATHER, ULMER OF THE
KINGSWOOD, ELRON, PYPAR called PYP, GRENN called AUROCHS, BERNARR called BLACK BERNARR, GOADY, TIM
STONE, BLACK JACK BULWER, GEOFF called THE SQUIRREL, BEARDED BEN, rangers,
BOWEN MARSH, Lord Steward,

THREE-FINGER HOBB, steward and chief cook,
{DONAL NOYE}, one-armed armorer and smith, slain at the gate by Mag the Mighty
OWEN called THE OAF, TIM TANGLETONGUE, MULLY, CUGEN, DONNEL HILL called SWEET DONNEL, LEFT HAND
LEW, JEREN, WICK WHITTLESTICK, stewards,
OTHELL YARWYCK, First Builder,
SPARE BOOT, HALDER, ALBETT, KEGS, builders,
CONWY, GUEREN, wandering recruiters,
SEPTON CELLADOR, a drunken devout,
SER ALLISER THORNE, former master-at-arms,
LORD JANOS SLYNT, former commander of the City Watch of Kings Landing, briefly Lord of Harrenhal,
MAESTER AEMON (TARGARYEN), healer and counselor, a blind man, one hundred and two years old,
Aemons steward, CLYDAS,
Aemons steward, SAMWELL TARLY, fat and bookish,
IRON EMMETT, formerly of Eastwatch, master-at-arms,
HARETH called HORSE, the twins ARRON and EMRICK, SATIN, HOP-ROBIN, recruits in training,
THE MEN OF THE SHADOW TOWER
SER DENYS MALLISTER, Commander, Shadow Tower,
his steward and squire, WALLACE MASSEY,
MAESTER MULLIN, healer and counselor,
{QHORIN HALFHAND}, chief ranger, slain by Jon Snow beyond the Wall,
brothers of the Shadow Tower:
{SQUIRE DALBRIDGE, EGGEN}, rangers, slain in the Skirling Pass,
STONESNAKE, a ranger, lost afoot in Skirling Pass,
THE MEN OF EASTWATCH-BY-THE-SEA
COTTER PYKE, Commander,
MAESTER HARMUNE, healer and counselor,
OLD TATTERSALT, captain of the Blackbird,
SER GLENDON HEWETT, master-at-arms,
brothers of Eastwatch:
DAREON, steward and singer,
AT CRASTERS KEEP (THE BETRAYERS)
DIRK, who murdered Craster, his host,
OLLO LOPHAND, who slew his lord commander, Jeor Mormont,
GARTH OF GREENAWAY, MAWNEY, GRUBBS, ALAN OF ROSBY, former rangers
CLUBFOOT KARL, ORPHAN OSS, MUTTERING BILL, former stewards.
the WILDLINGS, or THE FREE FOLK
MANCE RAYDER, King-beyond-the-Wall, a captive at Castle Black,
his wife, {DALLA}, died in childbirth,
their newborn son, born in battle, not yet named,
VAL, Dallas younger sister, the wildling princess, a captive at Castle Black,
wildling chiefs and captains:
{HARMA}, called DOGSHEAD, slain beneath the Wall,
HALLECK, her brother,
THE LORD OF BONES, mocked as RATTLESHIRT, a raider and leader of a war band, captive at Castle Black,
{YGRITTE}, a young spearwife, Jon Snows lover, killed during the attack on Castle Black,
RYK, called LONGSPEAR, a member of his band,
RAGWYLE, LENYL, members of his band,

{STYR}, Magnar of Thenn, slain attacking Castle Black,
SIGORN, Styrs son, the new Magnar of Thenn,
TORMUND, Mead-King of Ruddy Hall, called GIANTSBANE, TALL-TALKER, HORN-BLOWER, and BREAKER OF ICE, also
THUNDERFIST, HUSBAND TO BEARS, SPEAKER TO GODS, and FATHER OF HOSTS,
Tormunds sons, TOREGG THE TALL, TORWYRD THE TAME, DORMUND, and DRYN, his daughter MUNDA,
THE WEEPER, a raider and leader of a war band,
{ALFYN CROWKILLER}, a raider, slain by Qhorin Halfhand of the Nights Watch,
{ORELL}, called ORELL THE EAGLE, a skinchanger slain by Jon Snow in the Skirling Pass,
{MAG MAR TUN DOH WEG}, called MAG THE MIGHTY, a giant, slain by Donal Noye at the gate of Castle Black,
VARAMYR called SIXSKINS, a skinchanger, master of three wolves, a shadowcat, and snow bear,
{JARL}, a young raider, Vals lover, killed in a fall from the Wall,
GRIGG THE GOAT, ERROK, BODGER, DEL, BIG BOIL, HEMPEN DAN, HENK THE HELM, LENN, TOEFINGER, wildlings
and raiders,
{CRASTER}, master of Crasters Keep, slain by Dirk of the Nights Watch, a guest beneath his roof,
GILLY, his daughter and wife,
Gillys newborn son, not yet named,
DYAH, FERNY, NELLA, three of Crasters nineteen wives.

BEYOND THE NARROW SEA
THE QUEEN ACROSS THE WATER
DAENERYS TARGARYEN, the First of Her Name, Queen of Meereen, Queen of the Andals and the Rhoynar and the First Men,
Lord of the Seven Kingdoms, Protector of the Realm, Khaleesi of the Great Grass Sea, called DAENERYS STORMBORN, the
UNBURNT, MOTHER OF DRAGONS,
her dragons, DROGON, VISERION, RHAEGAL,
her brother, {RHAEGAR}, Prince of Dragonstone, slain by Robert Baratheon on the Trident,
Rhaegars daughter, {RHAENYS}, murdered during the Sack of Kings Landing,
Rhaegars son, {AEGON, a babe in arms, murdered during the Sack of Kings Landing,
her brother {VISERYS}, the Third of His Name, called THE BEGGAR KING, crowned with molten gold,
her lord husband, {DROGO}, a khal of the Dothraki, died of a wound gone bad,
her stillborn son by Drogo, {RHAEGO}, slain in the womb by the maegi Mirri Maz Duur,
her Queensguard:
SER BARRISTAN SELMY, called BARRISTAN THE BOLD, once Lord Commander of King Roberts Kingsguard,
JHOGO, ko and bloodrider, the whip,
AGGO, ko and bloodrider, the bow,
RAKHARO, ko and bloodrider, the arakh,
STRONG BELWAS, eunuch and former fighting slave,
her captains and commanders:
DAARIO NAHARIS, a flamboyant Tyroshi sellsword, commanding the company of Stormcrows,
BEN PLUMM, called BROWN BEN, a mongrel sellsword, commanding the company of Second Sons,
GREY WORM, a eunuch, commanding the Unsullied, a company of eunuch infantry,
GROLEO of Pentos, formerly captain of the great cog Saduleon, now an admiral without a fleet,
her handmaids:
IRRI and JHIQUI, two Dothraki girls, sixteen,
MISSANDEI, a Naathi scribe and translator,
her known and suspected enemies:
GRAZDAN MO ERAZ, a nobleman of Yunkai,
KHAL PONO, once ko to Khal Drogo,
KHAL JHAQO, once ko to Khal Drogo,
MAGGO, his bloodrider,
THE UNDYING OF QARTH, a band of warlocks,
PYAT PREE, a Qartheen warlock,
THE SORROWFUL MEN, a guild of Qartheen assassins,
SER JORAH MORMONT, formerly Lord of Bear Island,
{MIRRI MAZ DUUR}, godswife and maegi, a servant of the Great Shepherd of Lhazar,
her uncertain allies, past and present:
XARO XHOAN DAXOS, a merchant prince of Qarth,
QUAITHE, a masked shadowbinder from Asshai,
ILLYRIO MOPATIS, a magister of the Free City of Pentos, who brokered her marriage to Khal Drogo,
CLEON THE GREAT, butcher king of Astapor,
KHAL MORO, sometime ally of Khal Drogo,
RHOGORO, his son and khalakka,
KHAL JOMMO, sometime ally of Khal Drogo.
The Targaryens are the blood of the dragon, descended from the high lords of the ancient Freehold of Valyria, their heritage
marked by lilac, indigo, and violet eyes and hair of silver-gold. To preserve their blood and keep it pure, House Targaryen has oft
wed brother to sister, cousin to cousin, uncle to niece. The founder of the dynasty, Aegon the Conquerer, took both his sisters to

wife and fathered sons on each. The Targaryen banner is a three-headed dragon, red on black, the three heads representing
Aegon and his sisters. The Targaryen words are Fire and Blood.

IN BRAAVOS
FERREGO ANTARYON, Sealord of Braavos,
QARRO VOLENTIN, First Sword of Braavos, his protector,
BELLEGERE OTHERYS called THE BLACK PEARL, a courtesan descended from the pirate queen of the same name,
THE VEILED LADY, THE MERLING QUEEN, THE MOONSHADOW, THE DAUGHTER OF THE DUSK, THE NIGHTINGALE,
THE POETESS, famous courtesans,
TERNESIO TERYS, Merchant-Captain of the Titans Daughter,
YORKO and DENYO, two of his sons,
MOREDO PRESTAYN, Merchant-Captain of the Vixen,
LOTHO LORNEL, a dealer in old books and scrolls,
EZZELYNO, a red priest, oft drunk,
SEPTON EUSTACE, disgraced and defrocked,
TERRO and ORBELO, a pair of bravos,
BLIND BEQQO, a fishmonger,
BRUSCO, a fishmonger,
his daughters, TALEA and BREA,
MERALYN, called MERRY, proprietor of the Happy Port, a brothel near the Ragmans Harbor,
THE SAILORS WIFE, a whore at the Happy Port,
LANNA, her daughter, a young whore,
BLUSHING BETHANY, YNA ONE-EYE, ASSADORA OF IBBEN, the whores of the Happy Port,
RED ROGGO, GYLORO DOTHARE, GYLENO DOTHARE, a scribbler called QUILL, COSSOMO THE CONJURER, patrons
of the Happy Port,
TAGGANARO, a dockside cutpurse and thief,
CASSO, KING OF THE SEALS, his trained seal,
LITTLE NARBO, his sometime partner,
MYRMELLO, JOSS THE GLOOM, QUENCE, ALLAQUO, SLOEY, mummers performing nightly on the Ship,
SVRONE, a dockside whore of a murderous bent,
THE DRUNKEN DAUGHTER, a whore of uncertain temper,
CANKER JEYNE, a whore of uncertain sex,
THE KINDLY MAN and THE WAIF, servants of the Many-Faced God at the House of Black and White,
UMMA, the temple cook,
THE HANDSOME MAN, THE FAT FELLOW, THE LORDLING, THE STERN FACE, THE SQUINTER, and THE STARVED
MAN, secret servants of Him of Many Faces,
ARYA of House Stark, a girl with an iron coin, also known as ARRY, NAN, WEASEL, SQUAB, SALTY, and CAT
QUHURU MO, of Tall Trees Town in the Summer Isles, master of the merchantman Cinnamon Wind,
KOJJA MO, his daughter, the red archer,
XHONDO DHORU, mate on the Cinnamon Wind.

ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
This one was a bitch.
My thanks and appreciation go out once again to those stalwart souls, my editors: Nita Taublib,
Joy Chamberlain, Jane Johnson, and especially Anne Lesley Groell, for her counsel, her good
humor, and her vast forbearance.
Thanks also to my readers, for all their kind and supportive e-mails, and for their patience. A
special tip of the helm to Lodey of the Three Fists, Pod the Devil Bunny, Trebla and Daj the
Trivial Kings, sweet Caress of the Wall, Lannister the Squirrel Slayer, and the rest of the
Brotherhood Without Banners, that half-mad drunken fellowship of brave knights and lovely
ladies who throw the best parties at worldcon, year after year after year. And let me sound a
fanfare too for Elio and Linda, who seem to know the Seven Kingdoms better than I do, and help
me keep my continuity straight. Their Westeros website and concordance is a joy and a wonder.
And thanks to Walter Jon Williams for guiding me across more salty seas, to Sage Walker for
leeches and fevers and broken bones, to Pati Nagle for HTML and spinning shields and getting
all my news up quickly, and to Melinda Snodgrass and Daniel Abraham for service that was
truly above and beyond the call of duty. I get by with a little help from my friends.
No words could suffice for Parris, who has been there on the good days and the bad ones for
every bloody page. All that needs be said is that I could not sing this Song without her.

ABOUT THE AUTHOR
GEORGE R. R. MARTIN sold his first story in 1971 and has been writing professionally
since then. He spent ten years in Hollywood as a writer-producer, working on The Twilight
Zone, Beauty and the Beast, and various feature films and television pilots that were never made.
In the mid 90s he returned to prose, his first love, and began work on his epic fantasy series, A
Song of Ice and Fire. He has been in the Seven Kingdoms ever since. Whenever hes allowed to
leave, he returns to Santa Fe, New Mexico, where he lives with the lovely Parris, a big white dog
called Mischa, and two cats named Augustus and Caligula, who think they run the place.

ALSO BY GEORGE R. R. MARTIN
A SONG OF ICE AND FIRE
Book One: A Game of Thrones
Book Two: A Clash of Kings
Book Three: A Storm of Swords
Dying of the Light
Windhaven (with Lisa Tuttle)
Fevre Dream
The Armageddon Rag
Dead Mans Hand (with John J. Miller)
SHORT STORY COLLECTIONS
A Song of Lya and Others
Songs of Stars and Shadows
Sandkings
Songs the Dead Men Sing
Nightflyers
Tuf Voyaging
Portraits of His Children
EDITED BY GEORGE R. R. MARTIN
New Voices in Science Fiction, Volumes 14
The Science Fiction Weight-Loss Book (with Isaac Asimov and Martin Harry Greenberg)
The John W. Campbell Awards, Volume 5
Night Visions 3
Wild Card IXV

And coming soon
A DANCE WITH DRAGONS
BY
GEORGE R. R. MARTIN
The epic continuation of his landmark series
A SONG OF ICE AND FIRE

Heres a special preview:
DAENERYS
She could hear the dead man coming up the steps. The slow, measured sound of footsteps
went before him, echoing amongst the purple pillars of her hall. Daenerys Targaryen awaited
him upon the ebon bench that she had made her throne. Her eyes were soft with sleep, her silver-
gold hair all tousled.
Your Grace, said Ser Barristan Selmy, the Lord Commander of her Queensguard, there is no
need for you to see this.
He died for me. Dany clutched her lion pelt to her chest. Underneath, a sheer white linen
tunic covered her to mid-thigh. She had been dreaming of a house with a red door when
Missandei woke her. There had been no time to dress.
Khaleesi, whispered Irri, you must not touch the dead man. It is bad luck to touch the dead.
Unless you killed them yourself. Jhiqui was bigger-boned than Irri, with wide hips and heavy
breasts. That is known.
It is known, Irri agreed.
Dany paid no heed. Dothraki were wise where horses were concerned, but could be utter fools
about much else. They are only girls, besides. Her handmaids were of an age with her; women
grown to look at them, with their black hair, copper skin, and almond-shaped eyes, but children
all the same. Khal Drogo had given them to her, who was her sun-and-stars. Drogo had given her
the pelt too, the head and hide of a hrakkar, the white lion of the Dothraki sea. It was too big for
her and had a musty smell, but it made her feel as if Drogo were still near her.
Grey Worm appeared atop the steps first, a torch in hand. His bronze cap was crested with three
spikes. Behind him followed four of his Unsullied, bearing the dead man on their shoulders.
Their caps had only one spike, and their faces showed so little they might have been cast of
bronze as well. They laid the corpse down at her feet. Ser Barristan pulled back the blood-stained
shroud. Grey Worm lowered the torch, so she might see.
The dead mans face was smooth and hairless, though his cheeks had been slashed open almost
ear to ear. He had been a tall man, blue-eyed and fair of face. Some child of Lys or old Volantis,
snatched off a ship by corsairs and sold into bondage in red Astapor. Though his eyes were open,
it was his wounds that wept. There were more wounds than she could count.
Your Grace, Ser Barristan said, there was a harpy drawn on the bricks in the alley where he
was found...
... drawn in his own blood. Daenerys knew the way of it by now. The Sons of the Harpy did
their butchery by night, and over each kill they left their mark. Grey Worm, why was this man
alone? Had he no partner? When the Unsullied walked the streets of Meereen by night, they
always walked in pairs.

My queen, replied the captain, your servant Stalwart Shield had no duty last night. He had
gone to a... a certain place... to drink, and have companionship.
A certain place? What do you mean?
A house of pleasure, Your Grace. Beneath the spiked bronze cap, Grey Worms face might
have been made of stone.
A brothel. Half of her freedmen were from Yunkai, where the Wise Masters had been famed for
training bed slaves. The way of the seven sighs. Brothels had sprouted up like mushrooms all
over Meereen. It is all they know. They need to survive. Food grew more costly every day,
whilst the pleasures of the flesh got cheaper. In the poorer districts between the stepped pyramids
of Meereens slaver nobility, there were brothels catering to every conceivable erotic taste, she
knew. Even so...
What could a eunuch hope to find in a brothel? she asked.
Even those who lack a mans parts may still have a mans heart, Your Grace, said Grey
Worm. This one has been told that your servant Stalwart Shield sometimes gave coin to the
women of the brothels, to lay with him and hold him.
The blood of the dragon does not weep. Stalwart Shield, she said, dry-eyed. That was his
name?
If it please Your Grace.
It is a fine name. The Good Masters of Astapor had not allowed their slave soldiers even
names. Some of her Unsullied reclaimed their birth names after she had freed them; others chose
new names for themselves. Is it known how many attackers fell upon Stalwart Shield?
This one does not know. Many.
Six or more, said Ser Barristan. From the look of his wounds, they swarmed him from all
sides. He was found with an empty scabbard. It may be that he wounded some of his attackers.
Dany said a silent prayer that somewhere one of them was dying even now, clutching at his
belly and writhing in pain. Why did they cut open his cheeks like that?
Gracious queen, said Grey Worm, his killers had forced the genitals of a goat down the
throat of your servant Stalwart Shield. This one removed them before bringing him here.
They could not feed him his own genitals. The Astapori left him neither root nor stem. The
Sons grow bolder, Dany observed. Until now, they had limited their attacks to unarmed
freedmen, cutting them down in the streets or breaking into their homes under the cover of
darkness to murder them in their beds. This is the first of my soldiers they have slain.
The first, Ser Barristan warned, but not the last.
I am still at war, Dany realized, only now I am fighting shadows. She had hoped to have a
respite from the killing, some time to build and heal. Shrugging off the lion pelt, she knelt beside
the corpse and closed the dead mans eyes, ignoring Jhiquis gasp. Stalwart Shield shall not be
forgotten. Have him washed and dressed for battle, and bury him with cap and shield and
spears.
It shall be as Your Grace commands, said Grey Worm.

She stood. Send a dozen men to the Temple of the Graces, and ask the Blue Graces if any man
has come to them seeking treatment for a sword wound. And spread the word that we will pay
good gold for the short sword of Stalwart Shield. Inquire of the butchers and the herdsmen too,
and learn who has been gelding goats of late. Perhaps they would be fortunate, and some
frightened goatherd would confess. Henceforth, see that no man of mine walks alone after dark,
whether he has the duty or no.
These ones shall obey.
Daenerys pushed her hair back. Find these cowards for me, she said fiercely. Find them, so
that I might teach the Harpys Sons what it means to wake the dragon.
Grey Worm saluted her. His Unsullied closed the shroud once more, lifted the dead man onto
their shoulders, and bore him from the hall. Ser Barristan Selmy remained behind. His hair was
white, and there were crows feet at the corners of his pale blue eyes. Yet his back was still
unbent, and the years had not yet robbed him of his skill at arms. Your Grace, he said, I fear
your eunuchs are ill-suited for the tasks you set them.
Dany settled on her bench and wrapped her pelt about her shoulders once again. The Unsullied
are my finest warriors.
Soldiers, not warriors, if it please Your Grace. They were made for the battlefield, to stand
shoulder to shoulder behind their shields, with their spears thrust out before them. Their training
teaches them to obey, fearlessly, perfectly, without thought or hesitation... not to unravel secrets
or ask questions.
Would knights serve me any better? Selmy was training knights for her, teaching the sons of
slaves to fight with lance and longsword in the Westerosi fashion... but what good would lances
do, against cowards who killed from the shadows?
Not in this, the old man admitted. And Your Grace has no knights, save me. It will be years
before the boys are ready.
Then who, if not Unsullied? Dothraki would be even worse. Her khalasar was tiny, and
largely of green boys and old men. And Dothraki fought from horseback. Mounted men were of
more use in open fields and hills than in the narrow streets and alleys of the city. Beyond
Meereens walls of many-colored brick her rule was tenuous at best. Thousands of slaves still
toiled on vast estates in the hills, growing wheat and olives, herding sheep and goats, and mining
salt and copper. Meereens storehouses still held ample supplies of grain, oil, olives, dried fruit,
and salted meat, but the stores were dwindling. So Dany had dispatched her khalasar to subdue
the hinterlands, under the command of her three bloodriders, whilst Brown Ben Plumm took his
Second Sons south to guard against Yunkish incursions.
The most crucial task of all she had entrusted to Daario Naharis, glib-tongued Daario with his
gold tooth and trident beard, smiling his wicked smile through purple whiskers. Beyond the
eastern hills was a range of rounded sandstone mountains, the Khyzai Pass, and Lhazar. If Daario
could convince the Lhazarene to reopen the overland trade routes, grains could be brought down
the river or over the hills at need... but the Lamb Men had no reason to love Meereen. When the

Stormcrows return from Lhazar, perhaps I can use them in the streets, she told Ser Barristan,
but until then I have only the Unsullied.
Dany wondered if Daario had reached Lhazar. Daario will not fail me... but if he does, I will
find another way. That is what queens do. They find a way, a way that does not involve taking
plows across the river. Even famine might be preferable to sending plows across the
Skahazadhan. It was known. You must excuse me, ser, she said. The petitioners will soon be
at my gates. I must don my floppy ears and become their queen again. Summon Reznak and the
Shavepate; Ill see them when Im dressed.
As Your Grace commands. Selmy bowed.
The Great Pyramid shouldered eight hundred feet into the sky, from its huge square base to the
lofty apex where the queen kept her private chambers, surrounded by greenery and fragrant
pools. As a cool blue dawn broke over the city, Dany walked out onto the terrace. To the west
sunlight blazed off the golden domes of the Temple of the Graces, and etched deep shadows
behind the stepped pyramids of the mighty. In some of those pyramids, the Sons of the Harpy are
plotting new murders even now, she thought, and I am powerless to stop them. Viserion sensed
her disquiet. The white dragon lay coiled around a pear tree, his head resting on his tail. When
Dany passed his eyes came open, two pools of molten gold. His horns were gold as well, and the
scales that ran down his back from head to tail. Youre lazy, she told him, scratching under his
jaw. His scales were hot to the touch, like armor left cooking too long in the sun. Dragons are
fire made flesh. She had read that in one of the books Ser Jorah had given her as a wedding gift.
You should be hunting with your brothers. Have you been fighting Drogon again? Her dragons
had grown wilder of late. Rhaegal had snapped at Irri, and Viserion had set Reznaks tokar
ablaze the last time the Seneschal had called. I have left them too much to themselves, but where
am I to find the time for them?
Viserions tail lashed sideways, thumping the trunk of the tree so hard that a pear came
tumbling down to land at Danys feet. His wings unfolded, and he half-flew, half-hopped onto
the parapet. He is growing, she thought, as the dragon launched himself into the sky. They are all
three growing. Soon they will be large enough to bear my weight. Then she would fly as Aegon
the Conquerer had flown, up and up, until Meereen was so small that she could blot it out with
her thumb.
She watched Viserion climb in widening circles, until he was lost to sight beyond muddy waters
of the Skahazadhan. Only then did Dany go back inside the pyramid, where Irri and Jhiqui were
waiting to brush the tangles from her hair and garb her as befit the Queen of Meereen, in a
Ghiscari tokar.
The garment was clumsy thing, a long loose shapeless sheet that had to be wound around her
hips and under an arm and over a shoulder, its dangling fringes carefully layered and displayed.
Wound too loose, it was like to fall off; wound too tight, it would tangle, trip, and bind. Even
wound properly, the tokar required its wearer to hold it in place with the left hand. Walking in a
tokar demanded small, mincing steps and exquisite balance, lest one tread upon those heavy

trailing fringes. It was not a garment meant for any man who had to work. The tokar was a
masters garment, a sign of wealth and power.
Dany had wanted to ban the tokar when she took Meereen, but her council had convinced her
otherwise. The Mother of Dragons must don the tokar or be forever hated, warned the Green
Grace, Galazza Galare. In the wools of Westeros or a gown of Myrish lace, Your Radiance shall
forever remain a stranger amongst us, a grotesque outlander, a barbarian conquerer. Meereens
queen must be a lady of Old Ghis. Brown Ben Plumm, the captain of the Second Sons, had put
it more succinctly. Man wants to be the king o the rabbits, he best wear a pair o floppy ears.
The floppy ears she chose today were made of sheer white linen, with a fringe of golden tassels.
With Jhiquis help, she wound the tokar about herself correctly on her third attempt. Irri fetched
her crown, wrought in the shape of the three-headed dragon of her House. Its coils were gold, its
wings silver, its three heads ivory, onyx, and jade. Danys neck and shoulders would be stiff and
sore from the weight of it before the day was done. A crown should not sit easy on the head. One
of her royal forebears had said that, once. An Aegon, but which one?
Five Aegons had ruled the Seven Kingdoms of Westeros, and there might have been a sixth if
the Usurpers dogs had not murdered her brothers son when he was still a babe at the breast. If
he had lived I might have married him. Aegon would have been closer to my age than Viserys.
Dany had scarcely been conceived when Aegon and his sister were murdered. Their father had
perished even earlier, slain by the Usurper on the Trident. Her other brother, Viserys, had died
screaming in Vaes Dothrak with a crown of molten gold upon his head. They will kill me too, if I
allow it. The knives that slew my Stalwart Shield were meant for me.
She had not forgotten the slave children the Great Masters had nailed up along the road from
Yunkai. They had numbered one hundred sixty-three, a child every mile, nailed to mileposts with
one arm outstetched to point her way. After Meereen had fallen, Dany nailed up a like number of
Great Masters. Swarms of flies had attended their slow dying, and the stench had lingered long in
the plaza. Yet some days she feared that she had not gone nearly far enough. These Meereenese
were a sly and stubborn people who resisted her at every turn. They had freed their slaves, yes...
only to hire them back as servants at wages so meager that most could scarce afford to eat.
Freedmen too old or young to be of use had been cast into the streets, along with the infirm and
the crippled. And still the Great Masters gathered atop their lofty pyramids to complain of how
the dragon queen had filled their noble city with hordes of unwashed beggars, thieves, and
whores.
To rule Meereen I must win the Meereenese, however much I may despise them. I am ready,
she told Irri.
Reznak and Skahaz waited atop the marble steps. Great queen, declared Reznak mo Reznak,
you are so radiant today I fear to look on you. The Seneschal wore a tokar of maroon silk with
a golden fringe. A small, damp man, he smelled as if he had bathed in perfume and spoke a
bastard form of High Valyrian, much corrupted and flavored with a thick Ghiscari growl.
You are kind to say so, Dany answered, in a purer form of the same tongue.

My queen, growled Skahaz mo Kandaq, of the shaven head. Ghiscari hair was dense and
wiry; it had long been the fashion for the men of the Slaver Cities to tease it into horns and
spikes and wings. By shaving, Skahaz had put old Meereen behind him to accept the new. His
Kandaq kin had done the same after his example. Others followed, though whether from fear,
fashion, or ambition, Dany could not say; shavepates, they were called. Skahaz was the
Shavepate... and the vilest of traitors to the Sons of the Harpy and their ilk. We were told about
the eunuch.
His name was Stalwart Shield.
More will die, unless the murderers are punished. Even with his shaven scalp, Skahaz had an
odious face; a beetled brow, small eyes with heavy bags beneath them, a big nose dark with
blackheads, oily skin that looked more yellow than the usual amber of Ghiscari. It was a blunt,
brutal, angry face. She could only pray it was an honest one as well.
How can I punish them when I do not know who they are? Dany demanded of him. Tell me
that, bold Skahaz.
You have no lack of enemies, Your Grace. You can see their pyramids from your terrace.
Zhak, Hazkar, Ghazeen, Merreq, Loraq, all the old slaving families. Pahl. Pahl, most of all. A
house of women now. Bitter old women with a taste for blood. Women do not forget. Women do
not forgive.
No, Dany thought, and the Usurpers dogs will learn that, when I return to Westeros. It was true
that there was blood between her and the house of Pahl. Oznak zo Pahl had been Meereens hero
until Strong Belwas slew him. His father, commander of the city watch, had died defending the
gates when Josos Cock smashed them into splinters. His uncle had been one of the hundred
sixty-three on the plaza.
How much gold have we offered for information concerning the Sons of the Harpy? Dany
asked of Reznak.
One hundred honors, if it please Your Radiance.
One thousand honors would please us more. Make it so.
Your Grace has not asked for my counsel, said Skahaz Shavepate, but I say that blood must
pay for blood. Take one man from each of the families I have named and kill him. The next time
one of yours is slain, take two from each great house and kill them both. There will not be a third
murder.
Reznak squealed in distress. Noooo... gentle queen, such savagery would bring down the ire of
the gods. We will find the murderers, I promise you, and when we do they will prove to be
baseborn filth, you shall see.
The Seneschal was as bald as Skahaz, though in his case the gods were responsible. Should
any hair be so insolent as to appear, my barber stands with razor ready, he had said when she
raised him up. There were times when Dany wondered if that razor might not be better used on
Reznaks throat. He was a useful man, but she liked him little and trusted him less. She had not
forgotten the maegi Mirri Maz Duur, who had repaid her kindness by murdering her sun-and-
stars and unborn child.

The Undying had told her she would be thrice betrayed. The maegi had been the first, Ser Jorah
the second. Will Reznak be the third, or the Shavepate, or Daario? Or will it be someone I would
never suspect, Ser Barristan or Grey Worm or Missandei?
Skahaz, she told the Shavepate, I thank you for your counsel. Reznak, see what one
thousand honors may accomplish. Clutching her tokar, Daenerys swept past them down the
broad marble stair. She took one step at a time, lest she trip over her fringe and go tumbling
headfirst into court.
Missandei announced her. The little scribe had a sweet, strong voice. All kneel for Daenerys
Stormborn, the Unburnt, Queen of Meereen, Queen of the Andals and the Rhoynar and the First
Men, Khaleesi of Great Grass Sea, Breaker of Shackles and Mother of Dragons, she cried as
Dany made her slow descent.
The hall had filled. Unsullied stood with their backs to the pillars, holding their shields and
spears, the spikes on their caps jutting upward like a row of knives. The Meereenese had
gathered beneath the eastern windows, in a throng of shaven pates and hairy horns and hands and
spirals. Her freedmen stood well apart from their former masters. Until they stand together,
Meereen will know no peace. Arise. Dany settled onto her bench. The hall rose. That at least
they do as one.
Reznak mo Reznak had a list. Custom demanded that the queen begin with the Astapori envoy,
a former slave who called himself Lord Ghael, though no one seemed to know what he was lord
of.
Lord Ghael had a mouth of brown and rotten teeth and the pointed yellow face of a weasel. He
also had a gift. Cleon the Great sends these slippers as a token of his love for Daenerys
Stormborn, the Mother of Dragons, he announced.
Irri fetched the slippers for her and put them on Danys feet. They were gilded leather,
decorated with green freshwater pearls. Does the butcher king believe a pair of pretty slippers
will win my hand? King Cleon is most generous, she said. You may thank him for his lovely
gift. Lovely, but made for a child. Dany had small feet, yet the slippers mashed her toes
together.
Great Cleon will be pleased to know they pleased you, said Lord Ghael. His Magnificence
bids me say that he stands ready to defend the Mother of Dragons from all her foes.
If he proposes that I marry Cleon again, Ill throw a slipper at his head, Dany thought, but for
once the Astapori envoy made no mention of a marriage.
Instead he said, The time has come for Astapor and Meereen to end the savage reign of the
Wise Masters of Yunkai, sworn foes to all those who live in freedom. Great Cleon bids me tell
you that he and his new Unsullied will soon march.
His new Unsullied are an obscene jape. King Cleon would be wise to tend his own gardens
and let the Yunkaii tend theirs. It was not that she harbored any love for Yunkai. More and
more she was coming to regret leaving the Yellow City untaken after defeating its army in the
field. The Wise Masters had returned to slaving as soon as shed moved on, and were busy
raising levies, hiring sellswords, and making alliances against her. Cleon the self-styled Great

was little better, however. The Butcher King had restored slavery to Astapor, the only change
being that the former slaves were now the masters and the former masters were now the slaves.
He is still a butcher, and his hands are bloody. I am only a young girl and know little of the
ways of war, she went on, but it is said that Astapor is starving. Let King Cleon feed his people
before he leads them out to battle. She made a gesture of dismissal, and Ghael withdrew.
Magnificence, prompted Reznak mo Reznak, will you hear the noble Hizdahr zo Loraq?
Again? Dany nodded, and Hizdahr strode forth; a tall man, very slender, with flawless amber
skin. He bowed on the same spot where Stalwart Shield had lain in death not long before. I need
this man, Dany reminded herself. Hizdahr was a weathly merchant with many friends in
Meereen, and more across the seas. He had visited Volantis, Lys, and Qarth, had kin in Tolos and
Elyria, and was even said to wield some influence in New Ghis, where the Yunkaii were trying
to stir up enmity against Dany and her rule.
And he was rich. Famously and fabulously rich...
And like to grow richer, if I grant his petition. When Dany had closed the citys fighting pits,
the value of pit shares had plummeted. Hizdahr zo Loraq had grabbed them up with both hands,
and now owned most of the pits in Meereen.
The nobleman had wings of hair sprouting from his temples as if his head were about to take
flight. His long face was made even longer by a beard of wiry red-black hair bound with rings of
gold. His purple tokar was fringed with amethysts and pearls. Your Radiance will know the
reason I am here.
Why, she said, it must be because you have no other purpose but to plague me. How many
times have I refused you?
Five times, Your Magnificence.
Six, now. I will not have the fighting pits reopened.
If Your Majesty will hear my arguments...
I have. Five times. Have you brought new arguments?
Old arguments, Hizdahr admitted, new words. Lovely words, and courteous, more apt to
move a queen.
It is your cause I find wanting, not your courtesies. I have heard your arguments so often I
could plead your case myself. Shall I? She leaned forward. The fighting pits have been a part
of Meereen since the city was founded. The combats are profoundly religious in nature, a blood
sacrifice to the gods of Ghis. The mortal art of Ghis is not mere butchery, but a display of
courage, skill, and strength most pleasing to the gods. Victorious fighters are well fed, pampered,
and acclaimed, and the heroic slain are honored and remembered. By reopening the pits I would
show the people of Meereen that I respect their ways and customs. The pits are far-famed across
the world. They draw trade to Meereen, and fill the citys coffers with coin from the far ends of
the earth. All men share a taste for blood, a taste the pits help slake. In that way they make
Meereen more tranquil. For criminals condemned to die upon the sands, the pits represent a
judgment by battle, a last chance for a man to prove his innocence. Dany tossed her hair.
There. How have I done?

Your Radiance has stated the case much better than I could have hoped to do myself. I see that
you are eloquent as well as beautiful. I am quite persuaded.
She had to laugh. Very good... but I am not.
Your Magnificence, whispered Reznak mo Reznak in her ear, if I might remind you, it is
customary for the city to claim one-tenth of all the profits from the fighting pits, after expenses,
as a tax. That coin might be put to many noble uses.
It might, she agreed, though if we were to reopen the pits, we should take our tenth before
expenses. I am only a young girl and know little of trade, but I dwelled with Illyrio Mopatis and
Xaro Xhoan Daxos long enough to know that much. It makes no matter. Hizdahr, if you could
marshal armies as you marshal arguments, you could conquer the world... but my answer is still
no. For the sixth time.
He bowed again, as deeply as before. His pearls and amethysts clattered softly against the
marble floor. A very limber man was Hizdahr zo Loraq. The queen has spoken.
He might be handsome, but for that silly hair. Reznak and the Green Grace had been urging
Dany to take a Meereenese noble for her husband, to reconcile the city to her rule. If it came to
that, Hizdahr zo Loraq might be worth a careful look. Sooner him than Skahaz. The Shavepate
had offered to set aside his wife for her, but the notion made her shudder. Hizdahr at least knew
how to smile, though when Dany tried to imagine what it would be like to share a bed with him,
she almost laughed aloud.
Magnificence, said Reznak, consulting his list, the noble Grazdan zo Galare would address
you. Will you hear him?
It would be my pleasure, said Dany, admiring the glimmer of the gold and the sheen of the
green pearls on Cleons slippers while doing her best to ignore the pinching in her toes. Grazdan,
she had been forewarned, was a cousin of the Green Grace, whose support she had found
invaluable. The priestess was a voice for peace, acceptance, and obedience to lawful authority. I
can give her cousin a respectful hearing, whatever he desires.
What he desired turned out to be gold. Dany had refused to compensate any of the Great
Masters for the value of the slaves that she had freed, but the Meereenese kept devising other
ways to try to squeeze coin from her. The noble Grazdan was one such. He had once owned a
slave woman who was a very fine weaver, he told her; the fruits of her loom were greatly valued,
not only in Meereen, but in New Ghis and Astapor and Qarth. When this woman had grown old,
Grazdan had purchased half a dozen young girls and commanded the crone to instruct them in
the secrets of her craft. The old woman was dead now. The young ones, freed, had opened a shop
by the harbor wall to sell their weavings. Grazdan zo Galare asked that he be granted a portion of
their earnings. They owe their skill to me, he insisted. I plucked them from the auction bloc
and gave them to the loom.
Dany listened quietly, her face still. When he was done, she said, What was the name of the
old weaver?
The slave? Grazdan shifted his weight, frowning. She was... Elza, it might have been. Or
Ella. It was six years ago she died. I have owned so many slaves, Your Grace.

Let us say Elza. Dany raised a hand. Here is our ruling. From the girls, you shall have
nothing. It was Elza who taught them weaving, not you. From you, the girls shall have a new
loom, the finest coin can buy. That is for forgetting the name of the old woman. You may go.
Reznak would have summoned another tokar next, but Dany insisted that he call upon one of
the freedmen instead. From that point on she alternated between the former masters and the
former slaves. Many and more of the matters brought before her involved redress. Meereen had
been sacked savagely after its fall. The stepped pyramids of the mighty had been spared the
worst of the ravages, but the humbler parts of the city had been given over to an orgy of looting
and killing as the citys slaves rose up and the starving hordes who had followed her from
Yunkai and Astapor came pouring through the broken gates. Her Unsullied had finally restored
order, but the sack had left a plague of problems in its wake, and no one was quite certain which
laws still held true. And so they came to see the queen.
A rich woman came, whose husband and sons had died defending the city walls. During the
sack she had fled to her brother in fear. When she returned, she found her house had been turned
into a brothel. The whores had bedecked themselves in her jewels and clothes. She wanted her
house back, and her jewels. They can keep the clothes, she allowed. Dany granted her the
jewels, but ruled the house was lost when she abandoned it.
A former slave came, to accuse a certain noble of the Zhak. The man had recently taken to wife
a freedwoman who had been the nobles bedwarmer before the city fell. The noble had taken her
maidenhood, used her for his pleasure, and gotten her with child. Her new husband wanted the
noble gelded for the crime of rape, and he wanted a purse of gold as well, to pay him for raising
the nobles bastard as his own. Dany granted him the gold, but not the gelding. When he lay
with her, your wife was his property, to do with as he would. By law, there was no rape. Her
decision did not please him, she could see, but if she gelded every man who ever forced a
bedslave, she would soon rule a city of eunuchs.
A boy came, younger than Dany, slight and scarred, dressed up in a frayed grey tokar trailing
silver fringe. His voice broke when he told of how two of his fathers household slaves had risen
up the night the gate broke. One had slain his father, the other his elder brother. Both had raped
his mother before killing her as well. The boy had escaped with no more than the scar upon his
face, but one of the murderers was still living in his fathers house, and the other had joined the
queens soldiers as one of the Mothers Men. He wanted them both hanged.
I am queen over a city built on dust and death. Dany had no choice but to deny him. She had
declared a blanket pardon for all crimes committed during the sack. Nor would she punish slaves
for rising up against their masters.
When she told him, the boy rushed at her, but his feet tangled in his tokar and he went
sprawling headlong on the purple marble. Strong Belwas was on him at once. The huge brown
eunuch yanked him up one-handed and shook him like a mastiff with a rat. Enough, Belwas,
Dany called. Release him. To the boy she said, Treasure that tokar, for it saved your life. Had
you laid a hand on us in anger, you would have lost that hand. You are only a boy, so we will

forget what happened here. You should do the same. But as he left, the boy looked back over
his shoulder, and when she saw his eyes Dany thought, The harpy has another son.
And so her day crept by, tedious and terrifying by turns. By midday Daenerys was feeling the
weight of the crown upon her head, and the hardness of the bench beneath her. With so many
still waiting on her pleasure, she did not stop to eat. Instead she dispatched Jhiqui to the kitchens
for a platter of flatbread, olives, figs, and cheese. She nibbled whilst she listened, and sipped
from a cup of watered wine. The figs were fine, the olives even finer, but the wine left a tart
metallic aftertaste in her mouth. The small, pale yellow grapes native to these regions produced a
notably inferior vintage. We shall have no trade in wine, Dany realized as she sipped. Besides,
the Great Masters had burned the best arbors along with the olive trees.
In the afternoon a sculptor came, proposing to replace the head of the great bronze harpy in the
Plaza of Purification with one cast in Danys image. She denied him with as much courtesy as
she could muster, struggling not to shudder. A pike of unprecedented size had been caught in the
Skahazadhan, and the fisherman wished to give it to the queen. She admired the fish
extravagantly, rewarded the fisherman with a plump purse of silver, and sent the pike down to
her kitchens. A coppersmith had fashioned her a suit of burnished rings to wear to war. She
accepted it with fulsome thanks; it was lovely to behold, and all that burnished copper would
flash prettily in the sun, though if actual battle threatened she would sooner be clad in steel. Even
a young girl who knew nothing of the ways of war knew that.
The slippers the Butcher King had sent her had grown too uncomfortable. Dany kicked them
off, and sat with one foot tucked beneath her and the other swinging back and forth. It was not a
very regal pose, but she was tired of being regal. The crown had given her a headache, and her
buttocks had gone to sleep. Ser Barristan, she called, I know what quality a king needs most.
Courage, Your Grace?
No, she teased, cheeks like iron. All I do is sit.
Your Grace takes too much on herself. You should allow your councillors to shoulder more of
your burdens.
I have too many councillors. What I need is cushions. Dany turned to Reznak. How many
more?
Three and twenty, if it please Your Magnificence. With as many claims. The seneschal
consulted some papers. One calf and three goats. The rest will be sheep or lambs, no doubt.
Three and twenty. Dany sighed. My dragons have developed a prodigious taste for mutton
since we began to pay the shepherds for their kills. Have these claims been proven?
Some men have brought burnt bones.
Men make fires. Men cook mutton. Burnt bones prove nothing. Brown Ben says there are red
wolves in the hills outside the city, and jackals and wild dogs. Must we pay good silver for every
lamb that goes astray between Yunkai and the Skahazadhan?
No, Magnificence. Reznak bowed. Shall I send these rascals away, or will you want them
scourged?

Daenerys shifted on the bench. The ebony felt hard beneath her. No man should ever fear to
come to me. Pay them. Some claims were false, she did not doubt, but more were genuine. Her
dragons had grown too large to be content with rats and cats and dogs, as before. The more they
eat the larger they will grow, Ser Barristan had warned her, and the larger they grow, the more
theyll eat. Drogon especially ranged far afield and could easily devour a sheep a day. Pay them
for the value of their animals, she told Reznak, but henceforth claimants must present
themselves at the Temple of the Graces, and swear a holy oath before the gods of Ghis.
It shall be done. Reznak turned to the petitioners. Her Magnificence the Queen has
consented to compensate each of you for the animals you have lost, he told them in the Ghiscari
tongue. Present yourselves to my factors on the morrow, and you shall be paid in coin or kind,
as you prefer.
The pronouncement was received in sullen silence. You would think they might be happier,
Dany thought, annoyed. They have what they came for. Is there no way to please these people?
One man lingered behind as the rest were filing out; a squat man with a windburnt face,
shabbily dressed. His hair was a cap of coarse red-black wire cropped about his ears, and in one
hand he held a sad cloth sack. He stood with his head down, gazing at the marble floor as if he
had quite forgotten where he was. And what does this one want? Dany wondered, frowning.
All kneel for Daenerys Stormborn, the Unburnt, Queen of Meereen, Queen of the Andals and
the Rhoynar and the First Men, Khaleesi of Great Grass Sea, Breaker of Shackles and Mother of
Dragons, cried Missandei in her high, sweet voice.
As Dany stood, her tokar began to slip. She caught it and tugged it back into place. You with
the sack, she called, did you wish to speak with us? You may approach.
When he raised his head, his eyes were red and raw as open sores. Dany glimpsed Ser Barristan
sliding closer, a white shadow at her side. The man approached in a stumbling shuffle, one step
and then another, clutching his sack. Is he drunk, or ill? she wondered. There was dirt beneath
his cracked yellow fingernails.
What is it? she demanded. Do you have some grievance to lay before us, some petition?
What would you have of us?
His tongue flicked nervously over chapped, cracked lips. I... I brought...
Bones? she said, impatiently. Burnt bones?
He lifted the sack, and spilled its contents on the marble.
Bones they were, broken bones and blackened. The longer ones had been cracked open for their
marrow.
It were the black one, the man said, in a Ghiscari growl, the winged shadow. He come down
from the sky and... and...
No. Dany shivered. No, no, oh no.
Are you deaf, fool? Reznak mo Reznak demanded of the man. Did you not hear my
pronouncement? See my factors on the morrow, and you shall be paid for your sheep.
Reznak, Ser Barristan said quietly, hold your tongue and open your eyes. Those are no sheep
bones.

No, Dany thought, those are the bones of a child.



George R. R. Martin
A DANCE WITH DRAGONS
Book Five of
A Song of Ice and Fire
Dedication
this one is for my fans
for Lodey, Trebla, Stego, Pod,
Caress, Yags, X-Ray and Mr. X,
Kate, Chataya, Mormont, Mich,
Jamie, Vanessa, Ro,
for Stubby, Louise, Agravaine,
Wert, Malt, Jo,
Mouse, Telisiane, Blackfyre,
Bronn Stone, Coyotes Daughter,
and the rest of the madmen and wild women of
the Brotherhood Without Banners
for my website wizards

Elio and Linda, lords of Westeros,
Winter and Fabio of WIC,
and Gibbs of Dragonstone, who started it all
for men and women of Asshai in Spain
who sang to us of a bear and a maiden fair
and the fabulous fans of Italy
who gave me so much wine
for my readers in Finland, Germany,
Brazil, Portugal, France, and the Netherlands
and all the other distant lands
where youve been waiting for this dance
and for all the friends and fans
I have yet to meet
thanks for your patience
Contents
Dedication
A CAVIL ON CHRONOLOGY
PROLOGUE
TYRION

DAENERYS
JON
BRAN
TYRION
THE MERCHANTS MAN
JON
TYRION
DAVOS
JON
DAENERYS
REEK
BRAN

TYRION
DAVOS
DAENERYS
JON
TYRION
DAVOS
REEK
JON
TYRION
DAENERYS
THE LOST LORD
THE WINDBLOWN
THE WAYWARD BRIDE

TYRION
JON
DAVOS
DAENERYS
MELISANDRE
REEK
TYRION
BRAN
JON
DAENERYS
THE PRINCE OF WINTERFELL
THE WATCHER

JON
TYRION
THE TURNCLOAK
THE KINGS PRIZE
DAENERYS
JON
THE BLIND GIRL
A GHOST IN WINTERFELL
TYRION
JAIME
JON
DAENERYS
THEON

DAENERYS
JON
CERSEI
THE QUEENSGUARD
THE IRON SUITOR
TYRION
JON
THE DISCARDED KNIGHT
THE SPURNED SUITOR
THE GRIFFIN REBORN
THE SACRIFICE
VICTARION

THE UGLY LITTLE GIRL
CERSEI
TYRION
THE KINGBREAKER
THE DRAGONTAMER
JON
THE QUEENS HAND
DAENERYS
EPILOGUE
WESTEROS
THE BOY KING
THE KING AT THE WALL

KING OF THE ISLES AND THE NORTH
OTHER HOUSES GREAT AND SMALL
HOUSE ARRYN
HOUSE BARATHEON
HOUSE FREY
HOUSE LANNISTER
HOUSE MARTELL
HOUSE STARK
HOUSE TULLY
HOUSE TYRELL
THE SWORN BROTHERS OF THE NIGHTS WATCH

the WILDLINGS, or THE FREE FOLK
BEYOND THE WALL
ESSOS BEYOND THE NARROW SEA
IN BRAAVOS
IN OLD VOLANTIS
ON SLAVERS BAY
THE QUEEN ACROSS THE WATER
THE SELLSWORDS MEN AND WOMEN OF THE FREE COMPANIES
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
About the Author
About the Type By George R. R. Martin

Copyright
A CAVIL ON CHRONOLOGY
It has been a while between books, I know. So a reminder may be in order.
The book you hold in your hands is the fifth volume of A Song of Ice and Fire. The fourth volume
was A Feast for Crows. However, this volume does not follow that one in the traditional sense, so much
as run in tandem with it.
Both Dance and Feast take up the story immediately after the events of the third volume in the
series, A Storm of Swords. Whereas Feast focused on events in and around Kings Landing, on the Iron
Islands, and down in Dorne, Dance takes us north to Castle Black and the Wall (and beyond), and across
the narrow sea to Pentos and Slavers Bay, to pick up the tales of Tyrion Lannister, Jon Snow, Daenerys
Targaryen, and all the other characters you did not see in the preceding volume. Rather than being
sequential, the two books are parallel  divided geographically, rather than chronologically.
But only up to a point.
A Dance with Dragons is a longer book than A Feast for Crows, and covers a longer time period.
In the latter half of this volume, you will notice certain of the viewpoint characters from A Feast for
Crows popping up again. And that means just what you think it means: the narrative has moved past the
time frame of Feast, and the two streams have once again rejoined each other.
Next up, The Winds of Winter. Wherein, I hope, everybody will be shivering together once
again
George R. R. Martin
April 2011









PROLOGUE
The night was rank with the smell of man.
The warg stopped beneath a tree and sniffed, his grey-brown fur dappled by shadow. A sigh of
piney wind brought the man-scent to him, over fainter smells that spoke of fox and hare, seal and stag,
even wolf. Those were man-smells too, the warg knew; the stink of old skins, dead and sour, near
drowned beneath the stronger scents of smoke and blood and rot. Only man stripped the skins from
other beasts and wore their hides and hair.
Wargs have no fear of man, as wolves do. Hate and hunger coiled in his belly, and he gave a low
growl, calling to his one-eyed brother, to his small sly sister. As he raced through the trees, his
packmates followed hard on his heels. They had caught the scent as well. As he ran, he saw through
their eyes too and glimpsed himself ahead. The breath of the pack puffed warm and white from long
grey jaws. Ice had frozen between their paws, hard as stone, but the hunt was on now, the prey ahead.
Flesh, the warg thought, meat.
A man alone was a feeble thing. Big and strong, with good sharp eyes, but dull of ear and deaf to
smells. Deer and elk and even hares were faster, bears and boars fiercer in a fight. But men in packs
were dangerous. As the wolves closed on the prey, the warg heard the wailing of a pup, the crust of last
nights snow breaking under clumsy man-paws, the rattle of hardskins and the long grey claws men
carried.
Swords, a voice inside him whispered, spears.
The trees had grown icy teeth, snarling down from the bare brown branches. One Eye ripped
through the undergrowth, spraying snow. His packmates followed. Up a hill and down the slope beyond,
until the wood opened before them and the men were there. One was female. The fur-wrapped bundle
she clutched was her pup. Leave her for last, the voice whispered, the males are the danger. They were
roaring at each other as men did, but the warg could smell their terror. One had a wooden tooth as tall
as he was. He flung it, but his hand was shaking and the tooth sailed high.
Then the pack was on them.
His one-eyed brother knocked the tooth-thrower back into a snowdrift and tore his throat out as
he struggled. His sister slipped behind the other male and took him from the rear. That left the female
and her pup for him.

She had a tooth too, a little one made of bone, but she dropped it when the wargs jaws closed
around her leg. As she fell, she wrapped both arms around her noisy pup. Underneath her furs the
female was just skin and bones, but her dugs were full of milk. The sweetest meat was on the pup. The
wolf saved the choicest parts for his brother. All around the carcasses, the frozen snow turned pink and
red as the pack filled its bellies.
Leagues away, in a one-room hut of mud and straw with a thatched roof and a smoke hole and a
floor of hard-packed earth, Varamyr shivered and coughed and licked his lips. His eyes were red, his lips
cracked, his throat dry and parched, but the taste of blood and fat filled his mouth, even as his swollen
belly cried for nourishment. A childs flesh, he thought, remembering Bump. Human meat. Had he sunk
so low as to hunger after human meat? He could almost hear Haggon growling at him. Men may eat
the flesh of beasts and beasts the flesh of men, but the man who eats the flesh of man is an
abomination.
Abomination. That had always been Haggons favorite word. Abomination, abomination,
abomination. To eat of human meat was abomination, to mate as wolf with wolf was abomination, and
to seize the body of another man was the worst abomination of all. Haggon was weak, afraid of his own
power. He died weeping and alone when I ripped his second life from him. Varamyr had devoured his
heart himself. He taught me much and more, and the last thing I learned from him was the taste of
human flesh.
That was as a wolf, though. He had never eaten the meat of men with human teeth. He would
not grudge his pack their feast, however. The wolves were as famished as he was, gaunt and cold and
hungry, and the prey  two men and a woman, a babe in arms, fleeing from defeat to death. They would
have perished soon in any case, from exposure or starvation. This way was better, quicker. A mercy.
A mercy, he said aloud. His throat was raw, but it felt good to hear a human voice, even his
own. The air smelled of mold and damp, the ground was cold and hard, and his fire was giving off more
smoke than heat. He moved as close to the flames as he dared, coughing and shivering by turns, his side
throbbing where his wound had opened. Blood had soaked his breeches to the knee and dried into a
hard brown crust.
Thistle had warned him that might happen. I sewed it up the best I could, shed said, but you
need to rest and let it mend, or the flesh will tear open again.
Thistle had been the last of his companions, a spearwife tough as an old root, warty, windburnt,
and wrinkled. The others had deserted them along the way. One by one they fell behind or forged
ahead, making for their old villages, or the Milkwater, or Hardhome, or a lonely death in the woods.
Varamyr did not know, and could not care. I should have taken one of them when I had the chance. One
of the twins, or the big man with the scarred face, or the youth with the red hair. He had been afraid,
though. One of the others might have realized what was happening. Then they would have turned on
him and killed him. And Haggons words had haunted him, and so the chance had passed.

After the battle there had been thousands of them struggling through the forest, hungry,
frightened, fleeing the carnage that had descended on them at the Wall. Some had talked of returning
to the homes that theyd abandoned, others of mounting a second assault upon the gate, but most were
lost, with no notion of where to go or what to do. They had escaped the black-cloaked crows and the
knights in their grey steel, but more relentless enemies stalked them now. Every day left more corpses
by the trails. Some died of hunger, some of cold, some of sickness. Others were slain by those who had
been their brothers-in-arms when they marched south with Mance Rayder, the King-Beyond-the-Wall.
Mance is fallen, the survivors told each other in despairing voices, Mance is taken, Mance is
dead. Harmas dead and Mance is captured, the rest run off and left us, Thistle had claimed, as she
was sewing up his wound. Tormund, the Weeper, Sixskins, all them brave raiders. Where are they
now?
She does not know me, Varamyr realized then, and why should she? Without his beasts he did
not look like a great man. I was Varamyr Six-skins, who broke bread with Mance Rayder. He had named
himself Varamyr when he was ten. A name fit for a lord, a name for songs, a mighty name, and
fearsome. Yet he had run from the crows like a frightened rabbit. The terrible Lord Varamyr had gone
craven, but he could not bear that she should know that, so he told the spearwife that his name was
Haggon. Afterward he wondered why that name had come to his lips, of all those he might have chosen.
I ate his heart and drank his blood, and still he haunts me.
One day, as they fled, a rider came galloping through the woods on a gaunt white horse,
shouting that they all should make for the Milkwater, that the Weeper was gathering warriors to cross
the Bridge of Skulls and take the Shadow Tower. Many followed him; more did not. Later, a dour warrior
in fur and amber went from cookfire to cookfire, urging all the survivors to head north and take refuge
in the valley of the Thenns. Why he thought they would be safe there when the Thenns themselves had
fled the place Varamyr never learned, but hundreds followed him. Hundreds more went off with the
woods witch whod had a vision of a fleet of ships coming to carry the free folk south. We must seek
the sea, cried Mother Mole, and her followers turned east.
Varamyr might have been amongst them if only hed been stronger. The sea was grey and cold
and far away, though, and he knew that he would never live to see it. He was nine times dead and dying,
and this would be his true death. A squirrel-skin cloak, he remembered, he knifed me for a squirrel-skin
cloak.
Its owner had been dead, the back of her head smashed into red pulp flecked with bits of bone,
but her cloak looked warm and thick. It was snowing, and Varamyr had lost his own cloaks at the Wall.
His sleeping pelts and woolen smallclothes, his sheepskin boots and fur-lined gloves, his store of mead
and hoarded food, the hanks of hair he took from the women he bedded, even the golden arm rings
Mance had given him, all lost and left behind. I burned and I died and then I ran, half-mad with pain and
terror. The memory still shamed him, but he had not been alone. Others had run as well, hundreds of
them, thousands. The battle was lost. The knights had come, invincible in their steel, killing everyone
who stayed to fight. It was run or die.

Death was not so easily outrun, however. So when Varamyr came upon the dead woman in the
wood, he knelt to strip the cloak from her, and never saw the boy until he burst from hiding to drive the
long bone knife into his side and rip the cloak out of his clutching fingers. His mother, Thistle told him
later, after the boy had run off. It were his mothers cloak, and when he saw you robbing her 
She was dead, Varamyr said, wincing as her bone needle pierced his flesh. Someone smashed
her head. Some crow.
No crow. Hornfoot men. I saw it. Her needle pulled the gash in his side closed. Savages, and
whos left to tame them? No one. If Mance is dead, the free folk are doomed. The Thenns, giants, and
the Hornfoot men, the cave-dwellers with their filed teeth, and the men of the western shore with their
chariots of bone  all of them were doomed as well. Even the crows. They might not know it yet, but
those black-cloaked bastards would perish with the rest. The enemy was coming.
Haggons rough voice echoed in his head. You will die a dozen deaths, boy, and every one will
hurt  but when your true death comes, you will live again. The second life is simpler and sweeter, they
say.
Varamyr Sixskins would know the truth of that soon enough. He could taste his true death in the
smoke that hung acrid in the air, feel it in the heat beneath his fingers when he slipped a hand under his
clothes to touch his wound. The chill was in him too, though, deep down in his bones. This time it would
be cold that killed him.
His last death had been by fire. I burned. At first, in his confusion, he thought some archer on
the Wall had pierced him with a flaming arrow  but the fire had been inside him, consuming him. And
the pain 
Varamyr had died nine times before. He had died once from a spear thrust, once with a bears
teeth in his throat, and once in a wash of blood as he brought forth a stillborn cub. He died his first
death when he was only six, as his fathers axe crashed through his skull. Even that had not been so
agonizing as the fire in his guts, crackling along his wings, devouring him. When he tried to fly from it, his
terror fanned the flames and made them burn hotter. One moment he had been soaring above the
Wall, his eagles eyes marking the movements of the men below. Then the flames had turned his heart
into a blackened cinder and sent his spirit screaming back into his own skin, and for a little while hed
gone mad. Even the memory was enough to make him shudder.
That was when he noticed that his fire had gone out.
Only a grey-and-black tangle of charred wood remained, with a few embers glowing in the
ashes. Theres still smoke, it just needs wood. Gritting his teeth against the pain, Varamyr crept to the
pile of broken branches Thistle had gathered before she went off hunting, and tossed a few sticks onto
the ashes. Catch, he croaked. Burn. He blew upon the embers and said a wordless prayer to the
nameless gods of wood and hill and field.

The gods gave no answer. After a while, the smoke ceased to rise as well. Already the little hut
was growing colder. Varamyr had no flint, no tinder, no dry kindling. He would never get the fire burning
again, not by himself. Thistle, he called out, his voice hoarse and edged with pain. Thistle!
Her chin was pointed and her nose flat, and she had a mole on one cheek with four dark hairs
growing from it. An ugly face, and hard, yet he would have given much to glimpse it in the door of the
hut. I should have taken her before she left. How long had she been gone? Two days? Three? Varamyr
was uncertain. It was dark inside the hut, and he had been drifting in and out of sleep, never quite sure
if it was day or night outside. Wait, shed said. I will be back with food. So like a fool hed waited,
dreaming of Haggon and Bump and all the wrongs he had done in his long life, but days and nights had
passed and Thistle had not returned. She wont be coming back. Varamyr wondered if he had given
himself away. Could she tell what he was thinking just from looking at him, or had he muttered in his
fever dream?
Abomination, he heard Haggon saying. It was almost as if he were here, in this very room. She
is just some ugly spearwife, Varamyr told him. I am a great man. I am Varamyr, the warg, the
skinchanger, it is not right that she should live and I should die. No one answered. There was no one
there. Thistle was gone. She had abandoned him, the same as all the rest.
His own mother had abandoned him as well. She cried for Bump, but she never cried for me. The
morning his father pulled him out of bed to deliver him to Haggon, she would not even look at him. He
had shrieked and kicked as he was dragged into the woods, until his father slapped him and told him to
be quiet. You belong with your own kind, was all he said when he flung him down at Haggons feet.
He was not wrong, Varamyr thought, shivering. Haggon taught me much and more. He taught
me how to hunt and fish, how to butcher a carcass and bone a fish, how to find my way through the
woods. And he taught me the way of the warg and the secrets of the skinchanger, though my gift was
stronger than his own.
Years later he had tried to find his parents, to tell them that their Lump had become the great
Varamyr Sixskins, but both of them were dead and burned. Gone into the trees and streams, gone into
the rocks and earth. Gone to dirt and ashes. That was what the woods witch told his mother, the day
Bump died. Lump did not want to be a clod of earth. The boy had dreamed of a day when bards would
sing of his deeds and pretty girls would kiss him. When I am grown I will be the King-Beyond-the-Wall,
Lump had promised himself. He never had, but he had come close. Varamyr Sixskins was a name men
feared. He rode to battle on the back of a snow bear thirteen feet tall, kept three wolves and a
shadowcat in thrall, and sat at the right hand of Mance Rayder. It was Mance who brought me to this
place. I should not have listened. I should have slipped inside my bear and torn him to pieces.
Before Mance, Varamyr Sixskins had been a lord of sorts. He lived alone in a hall of moss and
mud and hewn logs that had once been Haggons, attended by his beasts. A dozen villages did him
homage in bread and salt and cider, offering him fruit from their orchards and vegetables from their
gardens. His meat he got himself. Whenever he desired a woman he sent his shadowcat to stalk her, and
whatever girl hed cast his eye upon would follow meekly to his bed. Some came weeping, aye, but still

they came. Varamyr gave them his seed, took a hank of their hair to remember them by, and sent them
back. From time to time, some village hero would come with spear in hand to slay the beastling and save
a sister or a lover or a daughter. Those he killed, but he never harmed the women. Some he even
blessed with children. Runts. Small, puny things, like Lump, and not one with the gift.
Fear drove him to his feet, reeling. Holding his side to staunch the seep of blood from his
wound, Varamyr lurched to the door and swept aside the ragged skin that covered it to face a wall of
white. Snow. No wonder it had grown so dark and smoky inside. The falling snow had buried the hut.
When Varamyr pushed at it, the snow crumbled and gave way, still soft and wet. Outside, the
night was white as death; pale thin clouds danced attendance on a silver moon, while a thousand stars
watched coldly. He could see the humped shapes of other huts buried beneath drifts of snow, and
beyond them the pale shadow of a weirwood armored in ice. To the south and west the hills were a vast
white wilderness where nothing moved except the blowing snow. Thistle, Varamyr called feebly,
wondering how far she could have gone. Thistle. Woman. Where are you?
Far away, a wolf gave howl.
A shiver went through Varamyr. He knew that howl as well as Lump had once known his
mothers voice. One Eye. He was the oldest of his three, the biggest, the fiercest. Stalker was leaner,
quicker, younger, Sly more cunning, but both went in fear of One Eye. The old wolf was fearless,
relentless, savage.
Varamyr had lost control of his other beasts in the agony of the eagles death. His shadowcat
had raced into the woods, whilst his snow bear turned her claws on those around her, ripping apart four
men before falling to a spear. She would have slain Varamyr had he come within her reach. The bear
hated him, had raged each time he wore her skin or climbed upon her back.
His wolves, though 
My brothers. My pack. Many a cold night he had slept with his wolves, their shaggy bodies piled
up around him to help keep him warm. When I die they will feast upon my flesh and leave only bones to
greet the thaw come spring. The thought was queerly comforting. His wolves had often foraged for him
as they roamed; it seemed only fitting that he should feed them in the end. He might well begin his
second life tearing at the warm dead flesh of his own corpse.
Dogs were the easiest beasts to bond with; they lived so close to men that they were almost
human. Slipping into a dogs skin was like putting on an old boot, its leather softened by wear. As a boot
was shaped to accept a foot, a dog was shaped to accept a collar, even a collar no human eye could see.
Wolves were harder. A man might befriend a wolf, even break a wolf, but no man could truly tame a
wolf. Wolves and women wed for life, Haggon often said. You take one, thats a marriage. The wolf is
part of you from that day on, and youre part of him. Both of you will change.
Other beasts were best left alone, the hunter had declared. Cats were vain and cruel, always
ready to turn on you. Elk and deer were prey; wear their skins too long, and even the bravest man

became a coward. Bears, boars, badgers, weasels  Haggon did not hold with such. Some skins you
never want to wear, boy. You wont like what youd become. Birds were the worst, to hear him tell it.
Men were not meant to leave the earth. Spend too much time in the clouds and you never want to
come back down again. I know skinchangers whove tried hawks, owls, ravens. Even in their own skins,
they sit moony, staring up at the bloody blue.
Not all skinchangers felt the same, however. Once, when Lump was ten, Haggon had taken him
to a gathering of such. The wargs were the most numerous in that company, the wolf-brothers, but the
boy had found the others stranger and more fascinating. Borroq looked so much like his boar that all he
lacked was tusks, Orell had his eagle, Briar her shadowcat (the moment he saw them, Lump wanted a
shadowcat of his own), the goat woman Grisella 
None of them had been as strong as Varamyr Sixskins, though, not even Haggon, tall and grim
with his hands as hard as stone. The hunter died weeping after Varamyr took Greyskin from him, driving
him out to claim the beast for his own. No second life for you, old man. Varamyr Threeskins, hed called
himself back then. Greyskin made four, though the old wolf was frail and almost toothless and soon
followed Haggon into death.
Varamyr could take any beast he wanted, bend them to his will, make their flesh his own. Dog or
wolf, bear or badger 
Thistle, he thought.
Haggon would call it an abomination, the blackest sin of all, but Haggon was dead, devoured,
and burned. Mance would have cursed him as well, but Mance was slain or captured. No one will ever
know. I will be Thistle the spearwife, and Varamyr Sixskins will be dead. His gift would perish with his
body, he expected. He would lose his wolves, and live out the rest of his days as some scrawny, warty
woman  but he would live. If she comes back. If I am still strong enough to take her.
A wave of dizziness washed over Varamyr. He found himself upon his knees, his hands buried in
a snowdrift. He scooped up a fistful of snow and filled his mouth with it, rubbing it through his beard
and against his cracked lips, sucking down the moisture. The water was so cold that he could barely
bring himself to swallow, and he realized once again how hot he was.
The snowmelt only made him hungrier. It was food his belly craved, not water. The snow had
stopped falling, but the wind was rising, filling the air with crystal, slashing at his face as he struggled
through the drifts, the wound in his side opening and closing again. His breath made a ragged white
cloud. When he reached the weirwood tree, he found a fallen branch just long enough to use as a
crutch. Leaning heavily upon it, he staggered toward the nearest hut. Perhaps the villagers had
forgotten something when they fled  a sack of apples, some dried meat, anything to keep him alive
until Thistle returned.
He was almost there when his crutch snapped beneath his weight, and his legs went out from
under him.

How long he sprawled there with his blood reddening the snow Varamyr could not have said.
The snow will bury me. It would be a peaceful death. They say you feel warm near the end, warm and
sleepy. It would be good to feel warm again, though it made him sad to think that he would never see
the green lands, the warm lands beyond the Wall that Mance used to sing about. The world beyond the
Wall is not for our kind, Haggon used to say. The free folk fear skinchangers, but they honor us as well.
South of the Wall, the kneelers hunt us down and butcher us like pigs.
You warned me, Varamyr thought, but it was you who showed me Eastwatch too. He could not
have been more than ten. Haggon traded a dozen strings of amber and a sled piled high with pelts for six
skins of wine, a block of salt, and a copper kettle. Eastwatch was a better place to trade than Castle
Black; that was where the ships came, laden with goods from the fabled lands beyond the sea. The
crows knew Haggon as a hunter and a friend to the Nights Watch, and welcomed the news he brought
of life beyond their Wall. Some knew him for a skinchanger too, but no one spoke of that. It was there at
Eastwatch-by-the-Sea that the boy hed been first began to dream of the warm south.
Varamyr could feel the snowflakes melting on his brow. This is not so bad as burning. Let me
sleep and never wake, let me begin my second life. His wolves were close now. He could feel them. He
would leave this feeble flesh behind, become one with them, hunting the night and howling at the
moon. The warg would become a true wolf. Which, though?
Not Sly. Haggon would have called it abomination, but Varamyr had often slipped inside her skin
as she was being mounted by One Eye. He did not want to spend his new life as a bitch, though, not
unless he had no other choice. Stalker might suit him better, the younger male  though One Eye was
larger and fiercer, and it was One Eye who took Sly whenever she went into heat.
They say you forget, Haggon had told him, a few weeks before his own death. When the
mans flesh dies, his spirit lives on inside the beast, but every day his memory fades, and the beast
becomes a little less a warg, a little more a wolf, until nothing of the man is left and only the beast
remains.
Varamyr knew the truth of that. When he claimed the eagle that had been Orells, he could feel
the other skinchanger raging at his presence. Orell had been slain by the turncloak crow Jon Snow, and
his hate for his killer had been so strong that Varamyr found himself hating the beastling boy as well. He
had known what Snow was the moment he saw that great white direwolf stalking silent at his side. One
skinchanger can always sense another. Mance should have let me take the direwolf. There would be a
second life worthy of a king. He could have done it, he did not doubt. The gift was strong in Snow, but
the youth was untaught, still fighting his nature when he should have gloried in it.
Varamyr could see the weirwoods red eyes staring down at him from the white trunk. The gods
are weighing me. A shiver went through him. He had done bad things, terrible things. He had stolen,
killed, raped. He had gorged on human flesh and lapped the blood of dying men as it gushed red and hot
from their torn throats. He had stalked foes through the woods, fallen on them as they slept, clawed
their entrails from their bellies and scattered them across the muddy earth. How sweet their meat had
tasted. That was the beast, not me, he said in a hoarse whisper. That was the gift you gave me.

The gods made no reply. His breath hung pale and misty in the air. He could feel ice forming in
his beard. Varamyr Sixskins closed his eyes.
He dreamt an old dream of a hovel by the sea, three dogs whimpering, a womans tears.
Bump. She weeps for Bump, but she never wept for me.
Lump had been born a month before his proper time, and he was sick so often that no one
expected him to live. His mother waited until he was almost four to give him a proper name, and by
then it was too late. The whole village had taken to calling him Lump, the name his sister Meha had
given him when he was still in their mothers belly. Meha had given Bump his name as well, but Lumps
little brother had been born in his proper time, big and red and robust, sucking greedily at Mothers
teats. She was going to name him after Father. Bump died, though. He died when he was two and I was
six, three days before his nameday.
Your little one is with the gods now, the woods witch told his mother, as she wept. Hell
never hurt again, never hunger, never cry. The gods have taken him down into the earth, into the trees.
The gods are all around us, in the rocks and streams, in the birds and beasts. Your Bump has gone to join
them. Hell be the world and all thats in it.
The old womans words had gone through Lump like a knife. Bump sees. He is watching me. He
knows. Lump could not hide from him, could not slip behind his mothers skirts or run off with the dogs
to escape his fathers fury. The dogs. Loptail, Sniff, the Growler. They were good dogs. They were my
friends.
When his father found the dogs sniffing round Bumps body, he had no way of knowing which
had done it, so he took his axe to all three. His hands shook so badly that it took two blows to silence
Sniff and four to put the Growler down. The smell of blood hung heavy in the air, and the sounds the
dying dogs had made were terrible to hear, yet Loptail still came when father called him. He was the
oldest dog, and his training overcame his terror. By the time Lump slipped inside his skin it was too late.
No, Father, please, he tried to say, but dogs cannot speak the tongues of men, so all that
emerged was a piteous whine. The axe crashed into the middle of the old dogs skull, and inside the
hovel the boy let out a scream. That was how they knew. Two days later, his father dragged him into the
woods. He brought his axe, so Lump thought he meant to put him down the same way he had done the
dogs. Instead hed given him to Haggon.
Varamyr woke suddenly, violently, his whole body shaking. Get up, a voice was screaming,
get up, we have to go. There are hundreds of them. The snow had covered him with a stiff white
blanket. So cold. When he tried to move, he found that his hand was frozen to the ground. He left some
skin behind when he tore it loose. Get up, she screamed again, theyre coming.
Thistle had returned to him. She had him by the shoulders and was shaking him, shouting in his
face. Varamyr could smell her breath and feel the warmth of it upon cheeks gone numb with cold. Now,
he thought, do it now, or die.

He summoned all the strength still in him, leapt out of his own skin, and forced himself inside
her.
Thistle arched her back and screamed.
Abomination. Was that her, or him, or Haggon? He never knew. His old flesh fell back into the
snowdrift as her fingers loosened. The spear-wife twisted violently, shrieking. His shadowcat used to
fight him wildly, and the snow bear had gone half-mad for a time, snapping at trees and rocks and
empty air, but this was worse. Get out, get out! he heard her own mouth shouting. Her body
staggered, fell, and rose again, her hands flailed, her legs jerked this way and that in some grotesque
dance as his spirit and her own fought for the flesh. She sucked down a mouthful of the frigid air, and
Varamyr had half a heartbeat to glory in the taste of it and the strength of this young body before her
teeth snapped together and filled his mouth with blood. She raised her hands to his face. He tried to
push them down again, but the hands would not obey, and she was clawing at his eyes. Abomination, he
remembered, drowning in blood and pain and madness. When he tried to scream, she spat their tongue
out.
The white world turned and fell away. For a moment it was as if he were inside the weirwood,
gazing out through carved red eyes as a dying man twitched feebly on the ground and a madwoman
danced blind and bloody underneath the moon, weeping red tears and ripping at her clothes. Then both
were gone and he was rising, melting, his spirit borne on some cold wind. He was in the snow and in the
clouds, he was a sparrow, a squirrel, an oak. A horned owl flew silently between his trees, hunting a
hare; Varamyr was inside the owl, inside the hare, inside the trees. Deep below the frozen ground,
earthworms burrowed blindly in the dark, and he was them as well. I am the wood, and everything
thats in it, he thought, exulting. A hundred ravens took to the air, cawing as they felt him pass. A great
elk trumpeted, unsettling the children clinging to his back. A sleeping direwolf raised his head to snarl at
empty air. Before their hearts could beat again he had passed on, searching for his own, for One Eye, Sly,
and Stalker, for his pack. His wolves would save him, he told himself.
That was his last thought as a man.
True death came suddenly; he felt a shock of cold, as if he had been plunged into the icy waters
of a frozen lake. Then he found himself rushing over moonlit snows with his packmates close behind
him. Half the world was dark. One Eye, he knew. He bayed, and Sly and Stalker gave echo.
When they reached the crest the wolves paused. Thistle, he remembered, and a part of him
grieved for what he had lost and another part for what hed done. Below, the world had turned to ice.
Fingers of frost crept slowly up the weirwood, reaching out for each other. The empty village was no
longer empty. Blue-eyed shadows walked amongst the mounds of snow. Some wore brown and some
wore black and some were naked, their flesh gone white as snow. A wind was sighing through the hills,
heavy with their scents: dead flesh, dry blood, skins that stank of mold and rot and urine. Sly gave a
growl and bared her teeth, her ruff bristling. Not men. Not prey. Not these.

The things below moved, but did not live. One by one, they raised their heads toward the three
wolves on the hill. The last to look was the thing that had been Thistle. She wore wool and fur and
leather, and over that she wore a coat of hoarfrost that crackled when she moved and glistened in the
moonlight. Pale pink icicles hung from her fingertips, ten long knives of frozen blood. And in the pits
where her eyes had been, a pale blue light was flickering, lending her coarse features an eerie beauty
they had never known in life.
She sees me.
TYRION
He drank his way across the narrow sea.
The ship was small, his cabin smaller, but the captain would not allow him abovedecks. The
rocking of the deck beneath his feet made his stomach heave, and the wretched food tasted even worse
when retched back up. But why did he need salt beef, hard cheese, and bread crawling with worms
when he had wine to nourish him? It was red and sour, very strong. Sometimes he heaved the wine up
too, but there was always more.
The world is full of wine, he muttered in the dankness of his cabin. His father never had any
use for drunkards, but what did that matter? His father was dead. Hed killed him. A bolt in the belly, my
lord, and all for you. If only I was better with a crossbow, I would have put it through that cock you made
me with, you bloody bastard.
Belowdecks, there was neither night nor day. Tyrion marked time by the comings and goings of
the cabin boy who brought the meals he did not eat. The boy always brought a brush and bucket too, to
clean up. Is this Dornish wine? Tyrion asked him once, as he pulled a stopper from a skin. It reminds
me of a certain snake I knew. A droll fellow, till a mountain fell on him.
The cabin boy did not answer. He was an ugly boy, though admittedly more comely than a
certain dwarf with half a nose and a scar from eye to chin. Have I offended you? Tyrion asked, as the
boy was scrubbing. Were you commanded not to talk to me? Or did some dwarf diddle your mother?
That went unanswered too. Where are we sailing? Tell me that. Jaime had made mention of the Free
Cities, but had never said which one. Is it Braavos? Tyrosh? Myr? Tyrion would sooner have gone to
Dorne. Myrcella is older than Tommen, by Dornish law the Iron Throne is hers. I will help her claim her
rights, as Prince Oberyn suggested.
Oberyn was dead, though, his head smashed to bloody ruin by the armored fist of Ser Gregor
Clegane. And without the Red Viper to urge him on, would Doran Martell even consider such a chancy
scheme? He might clap me in chains instead and hand me back to my sweet sister. The Wall might be
safer. Old Bear Mormont said the Nights Watch had need of men like Tyrion. Mormont might be dead,
though. By now Slynt may be the lord commander. That butchers son was not like to have forgotten

who sent him to the Wall. Do I really want to spend the rest of my life eating salt beef and porridge with
murderers and thieves? Not that the rest of his life would last very long. Janos Slynt would see to that.
The cabin boy wet his brush and scrubbed on manfully. Have you ever visited the pleasure
houses of Lys? the dwarf inquired. Might that be where whores go? Tyrion could not seem to recall
the Valyrian word for whore, and in any case it was too late. The boy tossed his brush back in his bucket
and took his leave.
The wine has blurred my wits. He had learned to read High Valyrian at his maesters knee,
though what they spoke in the Nine Free Cities  well, it was not so much a dialect as nine dialects on
the way to becoming separate tongues. Tyrion had some Braavosi and a smattering of Myrish. In Tyrosh
he should be able to curse the gods, call a man a cheat, and order up an ale, thanks to a sellsword he
had once known at the Rock. At least in Dorne they speak the Common Tongue. Like Dornish food and
Dornish law, Dornish speech was spiced with the flavors of the Rhoyne, but a man could comprehend it.
Dorne, yes, Dorne for me. He crawled into his bunk, clutching that thought like a child with a doll.
Sleep had never come easily to Tyrion Lannister. Aboard that ship it seldom came at all, though
from time to time he managed to drink sufficient wine to pass out for a while. At least he did not dream.
He had dreamed enough for one small life. And of such follies: love, justice, friendship, glory. As well
dream of being tall. It was all beyond his reach, Tyrion knew now. But he did not know where whores
go.
Wherever whores go, his father had said. His last words, and what words they were. The
crossbow thrummed, Lord Tywin sat back down, and Tyrion Lannister found himself waddling through
the darkness with Varys at his side. He must have clambered back down the shaft, two hundred and
thirty rungs to where orange embers glowed in the mouth of an iron dragon. He remembered none of it.
Only the sound the crossbow made, and the stink of his fathers bowels opening. Even in his dying, he
found a way to shit on me.
Varys had escorted him through the tunnels, but they never spoke until they emerged beside
the Blackwater, where Tyrion had won a famous victory and lost a nose. That was when the dwarf
turned to the eunuch and said, Ive killed my father, in the same tone a man might use to say, Ive
stubbed my toe.
The master of whisperers had been dressed as a begging brother, in a moth-eaten robe of
brown roughspun with a cowl that shadowed his smooth fat cheeks and bald round head. You should
not have climbed that ladder, he said reproachfully.
Wherever whores go. Tyrion had warned his father not to say that word. If I had not loosed, he
would have seen my threats were empty. He would have taken the crossbow from my hands, as once he
took Tysha from my arms. He was rising when I killed him.
I killed Shae too, he confessed to Varys.
You knew what she was.

I did. But I never knew what he was.
Varys tittered. And now you do.
I should have killed the eunuch as well. A little more blood on his hands, what would it matter?
He could not say what had stayed his dagger. Not gratitude. Varys had saved him from a headsmans
sword, but only because Jaime had compelled him. Jaime  no, better not to think of Jaime.
He found a fresh skin of wine instead and sucked at it as if it were a womans breast. The sour
red ran down his chin and soaked through his soiled tunic, the same one he had been wearing in his cell.
The deck was swaying beneath his feet, and when he tried to rise it lifted sideways and smashed him
hard against a bulkhead. A storm, he realized, or else I am even drunker than I knew. He retched the
wine up and lay in it a while, wondering if the ship would sink. Is this your vengeance, Father? Has the
Father Above made you his Hand? Such are the wages of the kinslayer, he said as the wind howled
outside. It did not seem fair to drown the cabin boy and the captain and all the rest for something he
had done, but when had the gods ever been fair? And around about then, the darkness gulped him
down.
When he stirred again, his head felt like to burst and the ship was spinning round in dizzy circles,
though the captain was insisting that theyd come to port. Tyrion told him to be quiet and kicked feebly
as a huge bald sailor tucked him under one arm and carried him squirming to the hold, where an empty
wine cask awaited him. It was a squat little cask, and a tight fit even for a dwarf. Tyrion pissed himself in
his struggles, for all the good it did. He was crammed face-first into the cask with his knees pushed up
against his ears. The stub of his nose itched horribly, but his arms were pinned so tightly that he could
not reach to scratch it. A palanquin fit for a man of my stature, he thought as they hammered shut the
lid. He could hear voices shouting as he was hoisted up. Every bounce cracked his head against the
bottom of the cask. The world went round and round as the cask rolled downward, then stopped with a
crash that made him want to scream. Another cask slammed into his, and Tyrion bit his tongue.
That was the longest journey he had ever taken, though it could not have lasted more than half
an hour. He was lifted and lowered, rolled and stacked, upended and righted and rolled again. Through
the wooden staves he heard men shouting, and once a horse whickered nearby. His stunted legs began
to cramp, and soon hurt so badly that he forgot the hammering in his head.
It ended as it had begun, with another roll that left him dizzy and more jouncing. Outside,
strange voices were speaking in a tongue he did not know. Someone started pounding on the top of the
cask and the lid cracked open suddenly. Light came flooding in, and cool air as well. Tyrion gasped
greedily and tried to stand, but only managed to knock the cask over sideways and spill himself out onto
a hard-packed earthen floor.
Above him loomed a grotesque fat man with a forked yellow beard, holding a wooden mallet
and an iron chisel. His bedrobe was large enough to serve as a tourney pavilion, but its loosely knotted
belt had come undone, exposing a huge white belly and a pair of heavy breasts that sagged like sacks of

suet covered with coarse yellow hair. He reminded Tyrion of a dead sea cow that had once washed up in
the caverns under Casterly Rock.
The fat man looked down and smiled. A drunken dwarf, he said, in the Common Tongue of
Westeros.
A rotting sea cow. Tyrions mouth was full of blood. He spat it at the fat mans feet. They were
in a long, dim cellar with barrel-vaulted ceilings, its stone walls spotted with nitre. Casks of wine and ale
surrounded them, more than enough drink to see a thirsty dwarf safely through the night. Or through a
life.
You are insolent. I like that in a dwarf. When the fat man laughed, his flesh bounced so
vigorously that Tyrion was afraid he might fall and crush him. Are you hungry, my little friend? Weary?
Thirsty. Tyrion struggled to his knees. And filthy.
The fat man sniffed. A bath first, just so. Then food and a soft bed, yes? My servants shall see
to it. His host put the mallet and chisel aside. My house is yours. Any friend of my friend across the
water is a friend to Illyrio Mopatis, yes.
And any friend of Varys the Spider is someone I will trust just as far as I can throw him.
The fat man made good on the promised bath, though. No sooner did Tyrion lower himself into
the hot water and close his eyes than he was fast asleep. He woke naked on a goose-down feather bed
so soft it felt as if he had been swallowed by a cloud. His tongue was growing hair and his throat was
raw, but his cock was as hard as an iron bar. He rolled from the bed, found a chamber pot, and
commenced to filling it, with a groan of pleasure.
The room was dim, but there were bars of yellow sunlight showing between the slats of the
shutters. Tyrion shook the last drops off and waddled over patterned Myrish carpets as soft as new
spring grass. Awkwardly he climbed the window seat and flung the shutters open to see where Varys
and the gods had sent him.
Beneath his window six cherry trees stood sentinel around a marble pool, their slender branches
bare and brown. A naked boy stood on the water, poised to duel with a bravos blade in hand. He was
lithe and handsome, no older than sixteen, with straight blond hair that brushed his shoulders. So
lifelike did he seem that it took the dwarf a long moment to realize he was made of painted marble,
though his sword shimmered like true steel.
Across the pool stood a brick wall twelve feet high, with iron spikes along its top. Beyond that
was the city. A sea of tiled rooftops crowded close around a bay. He saw square brick towers, a great red
temple, a distant manse upon a hill. In the far distance, sunlight shimmered off deep water. Fishing
boats were moving across the bay, their sails rippling in the wind, and he could see the masts of larger
ships poking up along the shore. Surely one is bound for Dorne, or for Eastwatch-by-the-Sea. He had no

means to pay for passage, though, nor was he made to pull an oar. I suppose I could sign on as a cabin
boy and earn my way by letting the crew bugger me up and down the narrow sea.
He wondered where he was. Even the air smells different here. Strange spices scented the chilly
autumn wind, and he could hear faint cries drifting over the wall from the streets beyond. It sounded
something like Valyrian, but he did not recognize more than one word in five. Not Braavos, he
concluded, nor Tyrosh. Those bare branches and the chill in the air argued against Lys and Myr and
Volantis as well.
When he heard the door opening behind him, Tyrion turned to confront his fat host. This is
Pentos, yes?
Just so. Where else?
Pentos. Well, it was not Kings Landing, that much could be said for it. Where do whores go?
he heard himself ask.
Whores are found in brothels here, as in Westeros. You will have no need of such, my little
friend. Choose from amongst my servingwomen. None will dare refuse you.
Slaves? the dwarf asked pointedly.
The fat man stroked one of the prongs of his oiled yellow beard, a gesture Tyrion found
remarkably obscene. Slavery is forbidden in Pentos, by the terms of the treaty the Braavosi imposed on
us a hundred years ago. Still, they will not refuse you. Illyrio gave a ponderous half bow. But now my
little friend must excuse me. I have the honor to be a magister of this great city, and the prince has
summoned us to session. He smiled, showing a mouth full of crooked yellow teeth. Explore the manse
and grounds as you like, but on no account stray beyond the walls. It is best that no man knows that you
were here.
Were? Have I gone somewhere?
Time enough to speak of that this evening. My little friend and I shall eat and drink and make
great plans, yes?
Yes, my fat friend, Tyrion replied. He thinks to use me for his profit. It was all profit with the
merchant princes of the Free Cities. Spice soldiers and cheese lords, his lord father called them, with
contempt. Should a day ever dawn when Illyrio Mopatis saw more profit in a dead dwarf than a live one,
Tyrion would find himself packed into another wine cask by dusk. It would be well if I was gone before
that day arrives. That it would arrive he did not doubt; Cersei was not like to forget him, and even Jaime
might be vexed to find a quarrel in Fathers belly.
A light wind was riffling the waters of the pool below, all around the naked swordsman. It
reminded him of how Tysha would riffle his hair during the false spring of their marriage, before he
helped his fathers guardsmen rape her. He had been thinking of those guardsmen during his flight,

trying to recall how many there had been. You would think he might remember that, but no. A dozen? A
score? A hundred? He could not say. They had all been grown men, tall and strong  though all men
were tall to a dwarf of thirteen years. Tysha knew their number. Each of them had given her a silver stag,
so she would only need to count the coins. A silver for each and a gold for me. His father had insisted
that he pay her too. A Lannister always pays his debts.
Wherever whores go, he heard Lord Tywin say once more, and once more the bowstring
thrummed.
The magister had invited him to explore the manse. He found clean clothes in a cedar chest
inlaid with lapis and mother-of-pearl. The clothes had been made for a small boy, he realized as he
struggled into them. The fabrics were rich enough, if a little musty, but the cut was too long in the legs
and too short in the arms, with a collar that would have turned his face as black as Joffreys had he
somehow contrived to get it fastened. Moths had been at them too. At least they do not stink of vomit.
Tyrion began his explorations with the kitchen, where two fat women and a potboy watched
him warily as he helped himself to cheese, bread, and figs. Good morrow to you, fair ladies, he said
with a bow. Do you know where whores go? When they did not respond, he repeated the question in
High Valyrian, though he had to say courtesan in place of whore. The younger, fatter cook gave him a
shrug that time.
He wondered what they would do if he took them by the hand and dragged them to his
bedchamber. None will dare refuse you, Illyrio claimed, but somehow Tyrion did not think he meant
these two. The younger woman was old enough to be his mother, and the older was likely her mother.
Both were near as fat as Illyrio, with teats that were larger than his head. I could smother myself in flesh.
There were worse ways to die. The way his lord father had died, for one. I should have made him shit a
little gold before expiring. Lord Tywin might have been niggardly with his approval and affection, but he
had always been open-handed when it came to coin. The only thing more pitiful than a dwarf without a
nose is a dwarf without a nose who has no gold.
Tyrion left the fat women to their loaves and kettles and went in search of the cellar where
Illyrio had decanted him the night before. It was not hard to find. There was enough wine there to keep
him drunk for a hundred years; sweet reds from the Reach and sour reds from Dorne, pale Pentoshi
ambers, the green nectar of Myr, three score casks of Arbor gold, even wines from the fabled east, from
Qarth and Yi Ti and Asshai by the Shadow. In the end, Tyrion chose a cask of strongwine marked as the
private stock of Lord Runceford Redwyne, the grandfather of the present Lord of the Arbor. The taste of
it was languorous and heady on the tongue, the color a purple so dark that it looked almost black in the
dim-lit cellar. Tyrion filled a cup, and a flagon for good measure, and carried them up to the gardens to
drink beneath those cherry trees hed seen.
As it happened, he left by the wrong door and never found the pool he had spied from his
window, but it made no matter. The gardens behind the manse were just as pleasant, and far more
extensive. He wandered through them for a time, drinking. The walls would have shamed any proper
castle, and the ornamental iron spikes along the top looked strangely naked without heads to adorn

them. Tyrion pictured how his sisters head might look up there, with tar in her golden hair and flies
buzzing in and out of her mouth. Yes, and Jaime must have the spike beside her, he decided. No one
must ever come between my brother and my sister.
With a rope and a grapnel he might be able to get over that wall. He had strong arms and he did
not weigh much. He should be able to clamber over, if he did not impale himself on a spike. I will search
for a rope on the morrow, he resolved.
He saw three gates during his wanderingsthe main entrance with its gatehouse, a postern by
the kennels, and a garden gate hidden behind a tangle of pale ivy. The last was chained, the others
guarded. The guards were plump, their faces as smooth as babies bottoms, and every man of them
wore a spiked bronze cap. Tyrion knew eunuchs when he saw them. He knew their sort by reputation.
They feared nothing and felt no pain, it was said, and were loyal to their masters unto death. I could
make good use of a few hundred of mine own, he reflected. A pity I did not think of that before I became
a beggar.
He walked along a pillared gallery and through a pointed arch, and found himself in a tiled
courtyard where a woman was washing clothes at a well. She looked to be his own age, with dull red
hair and a broad face dotted by freckles. Would you like some wine? he asked her. She looked at him
uncertainly. I have no cup for you, well have to share. The wash-erwoman went back to wringing out
tunics and hanging them to dry. Tyrion settled on a stone bench with his flagon. Tell me, how far should
I trust Magister Illyrio? The name made her look up. That far? Chuckling, he crossed his stunted legs
and took a drink. I am loath to play whatever part the cheesemonger has in mind for me, yet how can I
refuse him? The gates are guarded. Perhaps you might smuggle me out under your skirts? Id be so
grateful; why, Ill even wed you. I have two wives already, why not three? Ah, but where would we
live? He gave her as pleasant a smile as a man with half a nose could manage. I have a niece in
Sunspear, did I tell you? I could make rather a lot of mischief in Dorne with Myrcella. I could set my
niece and nephew at war, wouldnt that be droll? The washerwoman pinned up one of Illyrios tunics,
large enough to double as a sail. I should be ashamed to think such evil thoughts, youre quite right.
Better if I sought the Wall instead. All crimes are wiped clean when a man joins the Nights Watch, they
say. Though I fear they would not let me keep you, sweetling. No women in the Watch, no sweet freckly
wives to warm your bed at night, only cold winds, salted cod, and small beer. Do you think I might stand
taller in black, my lady? He filled his cup again. What do you say? North or south? Shall I atone for old
sins or make some new ones?
The washerwoman gave him one last glance, picked up her basket, and walked away. I cannot
seem to hold a wife for very long, Tyrion reflected. Somehow his flagon had gone dry. Perhaps I should
stumble back down to the cellars. The strongwine was making his head spin, though, and the cellar steps
were very steep. Where do whores go? he asked the wash flapping on the line. Perhaps he should
have asked the washerwoman. Not to imply that youre a whore, my dear, but perhaps you know where
they go. Or better yet, he should have asked his father. Wherever whores go, Lord Tywin said. She
loved me. She was a crofters daughter, she loved me and she wed me, she put her trust in me.

The empty flagon slipped from his hand and rolled across the yard. Tyrion pushed himself off
the bench and went to fetch it. As he did, he saw some mushrooms growing up from a cracked paving
tile. Pale white they were, with speckles, and red-ribbed undersides dark as blood. The dwarf snapped
one off and sniffed it. Delicious, he thought, and deadly.
There were seven of the mushrooms. Perhaps the Seven were trying to tell him something. He
picked them all, snatched a glove down from the line, wrapped them carefully, and stuffed them down
his pocket. The effort made him dizzy, so afterward he crawled back onto the bench, curled up, and shut
his eyes.
When he woke again, he was back in his bedchamber, drowning in the goose-down feather bed
once more while a blond girl shook his shoulder. My lord, she said, your bath awaits. Magister Illyrio
expects you at table within the hour.
Tyrion propped himself against the pillows, his head in his hands. Do I dream, or do you speak
the Common Tongue?
Yes, my lord. I was bought to please the king. She was blue-eyed and fair, young and willowy.
I am sure you did. I need a cup of wine.
She poured for him. Magister Illyrio said that I am to scrub your back and warm your bed. My
name
is of no interest to me. Do you know where whores go? She flushed. Whores sell
themselves for coin.
Or jewels, or gowns, or castles. But where do they go?
The girl could not grasp the question. Is it a riddle, mlord? Im no good at riddles. Will you tell
me the answer?
No, he thought. I despise riddles, myself. I will tell you nothing. Do me the same favor. The only
part of you that interests me is the part between your legs, he almost said. The words were on his
tongue, but somehow never passed his lips. She is not Shae, the dwarf told himself, only some little fool
who thinks I play at riddles. If truth be told, even her cunt did not interest him much. I must be sick, or
dead. You mentioned a bath? We must not keep the great cheesemonger waiting.
As he bathed, the girl washed his feet, scrubbed his back, and brushed his hair. Afterward she
rubbed sweet-smelling ointment into his calves to ease the aches, and dressed him once again in boys
clothing, a musty pair of burgundy breeches and a blue velvet doublet lined with cloth-of-gold. Will my
lord want me after he has eaten? she asked as she was lacing up his boots.
No. I am done with women. Whores.

The girl took that disappointment too well for his liking. If mlord would prefer a boy, I can have
one waiting in his bed.
Mlord would prefer his wife. Mlord would prefer a girl named Tysha. Only if he knows where
whores go.
The girls mouth tightened. She despises me, he realized, but no more than I despise myself. That
he had fucked many a woman who loathed the very sight of him, Tyrion Lannister had no doubt, but the
others had at least the grace to feign affection. A little honest loathing might be refreshing, like a tart
wine after too much sweet.
I believe I have changed my mind, he told her. Wait for me abed. Naked, if you please, Ill be
a deal too drunk to fumble at your clothing. Keep your mouth shut and your thighs open and the two of
us should get on splendidly. He gave her a leer, hoping for a taste of fear, but all she gave him was
revulsion. No one fears a dwarf. Even Lord Tywin had not been afraid, though Tyrion had held a
crossbow in his hands. Do you moan when you are being fucked? he asked the bedwarmer.
If it please mlord.
It might please mlord to strangle you. Thats how I served my last whore. Do you think your
master would object? Surely not. He has a hundred more like you, but no one else like me. This time,
when he grinned, he got the fear he wanted.
Illyrio was reclining on a padded couch, gobbling hot peppers and pearl onions from a wooden
bowl. His brow was dotted with beads of sweat, his pigs eyes shining above his fat cheeks. Jewels
danced when he moved his hands; onyx and opal, tigers eye and tourmaline, ruby, amethyst, sapphire,
emerald, jet and jade, a black diamond, and a green pearl. I could live for years on his rings, Tyrion
mused, though Id need a cleaver to claim them.
Come sit, my little friend. Illyrio waved him closer.
The dwarf clambered up onto a chair. It was much too big for him, a cushioned throne intended
to accommodate the magisters massive buttocks, with thick sturdy legs to bear his weight. Tyrion
Lannister had lived all his life in a world that was too big for him, but in the manse of Illyrio Mopatis the
sense of disproportion assumed grotesque dimensions. I am a mouse in a mammoths lair, he mused,
though at least the mammoth keeps a good cellar. The thought made him thirsty. He called for wine.
Did you enjoy the girl I sent you? Illyrio asked. If I had wanted a girl I would have asked for
one.
If she failed to please 
She did all that was required of her.
I would hope so. She was trained in Lys, where they make an art of love. The king enjoyed her
greatly.

I kill kings, hadnt you heard? Tyrion smiled evilly over his wine cup. I want no royal leavings.
As you wish. Let us eat. Illyrio clapped his hands together, and serving men came running.
They began with a broth of crab and monkfish, and cold egg lime soup as well. Then came quails
in honey, a saddle of lamb, goose livers drowned in wine, buttered parsnips, and suckling pig. The sight
of it all made Tyrion feel queasy, but he forced himself to try a spoon of soup for the sake of politeness,
and once he had tasted it he was lost. The cooks might be old and fat, but they knew their business. He
had never eaten so well, even at court.
As he was sucking the meat off the bones of his quail, he asked Illyrio about the mornings
summons. The fat man shrugged. There are troubles in the east. Astapor has fallen, and Meereen.
Ghiscari slave cities that were old when the world was young. The suckling pig was carved. Illyrio
reached for a piece of the crackling, dipped it in a plum sauce, and ate it with his fingers.
Slavers Bay is a long way from Pentos. Tyrion speared a goose liver on the point of his knife.
No man is as cursed as the kinslayer, he mused, but I could learn to like this hell.
This is so, Illyrio agreed, but the world is one great web, and a man dare not touch a single
strand lest all the others tremble. More wine? Illyrio popped a pepper into his mouth. No, something
better. He clapped his hands together.
At the sound a serving man entered with a covered dish. He placed it in front of Tyrion, and
Illyrio leaned across the table to remove the lid. Mushrooms, the magister announced, as the smell
wafted up. Kissed with garlic and bathed in butter. I am told the taste is exquisite. Have one, my friend.
Have two.
Tyrion had a fat black mushroom halfway to his mouth, but something in Illyrios voice made
him stop abruptly. After you, my lord. He pushed the dish toward his host.
No, no. Magister Illyrio pushed the mushrooms back. For a heartbeat it seemed as if a
mischievous boy was peering out from inside the cheese-mongers bloated flesh. After you. I insist.
Cook made them specially for you.
Did she indeed? He remembered the cook, the flour on her hands, heavy breasts shot through
with dark blue veins. That was kind of her, but  no. Tyrion eased the mushroom back into the lake of
butter from which it had emerged.
You are too suspicious. Illyrio smiled through his forked yellow beard. Oiled every morning to
make it gleam like gold, Tyrion suspected. Are you craven? I had not heard that of you.
In the Seven Kingdoms it is considered a grave breach of hospitality to poison your guest at
supper.
Here as well. Illyrio Mopatis reached for his wine cup. Yet when a guest plainly wishes to end
his own life, why, his host must oblige him, no? He took a gulp. Magister Ordello was poisoned by a

mushroom not half a year ago. The pain is not so much, I am told. Some cramping in the gut, a sudden
ache behind the eyes, and it is done. Better a mushroom than a sword through your neck, is it not so?
Why die with the taste of blood in your mouth when it could be butter and garlic?
The dwarf studied the dish before him. The smell of garlic and butter had his mouth watering.
Some part of him wanted those mushrooms, even knowing what they were. He was not brave enough
to take cold steel to his own belly, but a bite of mushroom would not be so hard. That frightened him
more than he could say. You mistake me, he heard himself say.
Is it so? I wonder. If you would sooner drown in wine, say the word and it shall be done, and
quickly. Drowning cup by cup wastes time and wine both.
You mistake me, Tyrion said again, more loudly. The buttered mushrooms glistened in the
lamplight, dark and inviting. I have no wish to die, I promise you. I have  His voice trailed off into
uncertainty. What do I have? A life to live? Work to do? Children to raise, lands to rule, a woman to love?
You have nothing, finished Magister Illyrio, but we can change that. He plucked a mushroom
from the butter, and chewed it lustily. Delicious.
The mushrooms are not poisoned. Tyrion was irritated.
No. Why should I wish you ill? Magister Illyrio ate another. We must show a little trust, you
and I. Come, eat. He clapped his hands again. We have work to do. My little friend must keep his
strength up.
The serving men brought out a heron stuffed with figs, veal cutlets blanched with almond milk,
creamed herring, candied onions, foul-smelling cheeses, plates of snails and sweetbreads, and a black
swan in her plumage. Tyrion refused the swan, which reminded him of a supper with his sister. He
helped himself to heron and herring, though, and a few of the sweet onions. And the serving men filled
his wine cup anew each time he emptied it.
You drink a deal of wine for such a little man.
Kinslaying is dry work. It gives a man a thirst.
The fat mans eyes glittered like the gemstones on his fingers. There are those in Westeros who
would say that killing Lord Lannister was merely a good beginning.
They had best not say it in my sisters hearing, or they will find themselves short a tongue. The
dwarf tore a loaf of bread in half. And you had best be careful what you say of my family, magister.
Kinslayer or no, I am a lion still.
That seemed to amuse the lord of cheese no end. He slapped a meaty thigh and said, You
Westerosi are all the same. You sew some beast upon a scrap of silk, and suddenly you are all lions or
dragons or eagles. I can take you to a real lion, my little friend. The prince keeps a pride in his
menagerie. Would you like to share a cage with them?

The lords of the Seven Kingdoms did make rather much of their sigils, Tyrion had to admit. Very
well, he conceded. A Lannister is not a lion. Yet I am still my fathers son, and Jaime and Cersei are
mine to kill.
How odd that you should mention your fair sister, said Illyrio, between snails. The queen has
offered a lordship to the man who brings her your head, no matter how humble his birth.
It was no more than Tyrion had expected. If you mean to take her up on it, make her spread
her legs for you as well. The best part of me for the best part of her, thats a fair trade.
I would sooner have mine own weight in gold. The cheesemonger laughed so hard that Tyrion
feared he was about to rupture. All the gold in Casterly Rock, why not?
The gold I grant you, the dwarf said, relieved that he was not about to drown in a gout of
half-digested eels and sweetmeats, but the Rock is mine.
Just so. The magister covered his mouth and belched a mighty belch. Do you think King
Stannis will give it to you? I am told he is a great one for the law. Your brother wears the white cloak, so
you are heir by all the laws of Westeros.
Stannis might well grant me Casterly Rock, said Tyrion, but for the small matter of regicide
and kinslaying. For those he would shorten me by a head, and I am short enough as I stand. But why
would you think I mean to join Lord Stannis?
Why else would you go the Wall?
Stannis is at the Wall? Tyrion rubbed at his nose. What in seven bloody hells is Stannis doing
at the Wall?
Shivering, I would think. It is warmer down in Dorne. Perhaps he should have sailed that way.
Tyrion was beginning to suspect that a certain freckled washerwoman knew more of the
Common Speech than she pretended. My niece Myrcella is in Dorne, as it happens. And I have half a
mind to make her a queen.
Illyrio smiled as his serving men spooned out bowls of black cherries in sweet cream for them
both. What has this poor child done to you that you would wish her dead?
Even a kinslayer is not required to slay all his kin, said Tyrion, wounded. Queen her, I said.
Not kill her.
The cheesemonger spooned up cherries. In Volantis they use a coin with a crown on one face
and a deaths-head on the other. Yet it is the same coin. To queen her is to kill her. Dorne might rise for
Myrcella, but Dorne alone is not enough. If you are as clever as our friend insists, you know this.

Tyrion looked at the fat man with new interest. He is right on both counts. To queen her is to kill
her. And I knew that. Futile gestures are all that remain to me. This one would make my sister weep
bitter tears, at least.
Magister Illyrio wiped sweet cream from his mouth with the back of a fat hand. The road to
Casterly Rock does not go through Dorne, my little friend. Nor does it run beneath the Wall. Yet there is
such a road, I tell you.
I am an attainted traitor, a regicide, and kinslayer. This talk of roads annoyed him. Does he
think this is a game?
What one king does, another may undo. In Pentos we have a prince, my friend. He presides at
ball and feast and rides about the city in a palanquin of ivory and gold. Three heralds go before him with
the golden scales of trade, the iron sword of war, and the silver scourge of justice. On the first day of
each new year he must deflower the maid of the fields and the maid of the seas. Illyrio leaned forward,
elbows on the table. Yet should a crop fail or a war be lost, we cut his throat to appease the gods and
choose a new prince from amongst the forty families.
Remind me never to become the Prince of Pentos.
Are your Seven Kingdoms so different? There is no peace in Westeros, no justice, no faith 
and soon enough, no food. When men are starving and sick of fear, they look for a savior.
They may look, but if all they find is Stannis
Not Stannis. Nor Myrcella. The yellow smile widened. Another. Stronger than Tommen,
gentler than Stannis, with a better claim than the girl Myrcella. A savior come from across the sea to
bind up the wounds of bleeding Westeros.
Fine words. Tyrion was unimpressed. Words are wind. Who is this bloody savior?
A dragon. The cheesemonger saw the look on his face at that, and laughed. A dragon with
three heads.
DAENERYS
She could hear the dead man coming up the steps. The slow, measured sound of footsteps went
before him, echoing amongst the purple pillars of her hall. Daenerys Targaryen awaited him upon the
ebon bench that she had made her throne. Her eyes were soft with sleep, her silver-gold hair all tousled.
Your Grace, said Ser Barristan Selmy, the lord commander of her Queensguard, there is no
need for you to see this.

He died for me. Dany clutched her lion pelt to her chest. Underneath, a sheer white linen tunic
covered her to midthigh. She had been dreaming of a house with a red door when Missandei woke her.
There had been no time to dress.
Khaleesi, whispered Irri, you must not touch the dead man. It is bad luck to touch the dead.
Unless you killed them yourself. Jhiqui was bigger-boned than Irri, with wide hips and heavy
breasts. That is known.
It is known, Irri agreed.
Dothraki were wise where horses were concerned, but could be utter fools about much else.
They are only girls, besides. Her handmaids were of an age with herwomen grown to look at them,
with their black hair, copper skin, and almond-shaped eyes, but girls all the same. They had been given
to her when she wed Khal Drogo. It was Drogo who had given her the pelt she wore, the head and hide
of a hrakkar, the white lion of the Dothraki sea. It was too big for her and had a musty smell, but it made
her feel as if her sun-and-stars was still near her.
Grey Worm appeared atop the steps first, a torch in hand. His bronze cap was crested with three
spikes. Behind him followed four of his Unsullied, bearing the dead man on their shoulders. Their caps
had only one spike each, and their faces showed so little they might have been cast of bronze as well.
They laid the corpse down at her feet. Ser Barristan pulled back the bloodstained shroud. Grey Worm
lowered the torch, so she might see.
The dead mans face was smooth and hairless, though his cheeks had been slashed open ear to
ear. He had been a tall man, blue-eyed and fair of face. Some child of Lys or Old Volantis, snatched off a
ship by corsairs and sold into bondage in red Astapor. Though his eyes were open, it was his wounds that
wept. There were more wounds than she could count.
Your Grace, Ser Barristan said, there was a harpy drawn on the bricks in the alley where he
was found 
 drawn in blood. Daenerys knew the way of it by now. The Sons of the Harpy did their
butchery by night, and over each kill they left their mark. Grey Worm, why was this man alone? Had he
no partner? By her command, when the Unsullied walked the streets of Meereen by night they always
walked in pairs.
My queen, replied the captain, your servant Stalwart Shield had no duty last night. He had
gone to a  a certain place  to drink, and have companionship.
A certain place? What do you mean?
A house of pleasure, Your Grace.
A brothel. Half of her freedmen were from Yunkai, where the Wise Masters had been famed for
training bedslaves. The way of the seven sighs. Brothels had sprouted up like mushrooms all over

Meereen. It is all they know. They need to survive. Food was more costly every day, whilst the price of
flesh grew cheaper. In the poorer districts between the stepped pyramids of Meereens slaver nobility,
there were brothels catering to every conceivable erotic taste, she knew. Even so  What could a
eunuch hope to find in a brothel?
Even those who lack a mans parts may still have a mans heart, Your Grace, said Grey Worm.
This one has been told that your servant Stalwart Shield sometimes gave coin to the women of the
brothels to lie with him and hold him.
The blood of the dragon does not weep. Stalwart Shield, she said, dry-eyed. That was his
name?
If it please Your Grace.
It is a fine name. The Good Masters of Astapor had not allowed their slave soldiers even
names. Some of her Unsullied reclaimed their birth names after she had freed them; others chose new
names for themselves. Is it known how many attackers fell upon Stalwart Shield?
This one does not know. Many.
Six or more, said Ser Barristan. From the look of his wounds, they swarmed him from all
sides. He was found with an empty scabbard. It may be that he wounded some of his attackers.
Dany said a silent prayer that somewhere one of the Harpys Sons was dying even now,
clutching at his belly and writhing in pain. Why did they cut open his cheeks like that?
Gracious queen, said Grey Worm, his killers had forced the genitals of a goat down the throat
of your servant Stalwart Shield. This one removed them before bringing him here.
They could not feed him his own genitals. The Astapori left him neither root nor stem. The Sons
grow bolder, Dany observed. Until now, they had limited their attacks to unarmed freedmen, cutting
them down in the streets or breaking into their homes under the cover of darkness to murder them in
their beds. This is the first of my soldiers they have slain.
The first, Ser Barristan warned, but not the last.
I am still at war, Dany realized, only now I am fighting shadows. She had hoped for a respite
from the killing, for some time to build and heal.
Shrugging off the lion pelt, she knelt beside the corpse and closed the dead mans eyes, ignoring
Jhiquis gasp. Stalwart Shield shall not be forgotten. Have him washed and dressed for battle and bury
him with cap and shield and spears.
It shall be as Your Grace commands, said Grey Worm.
Send men to the Temple of the Graces and ask if any man has come to the Blue Graces with a
sword wound. And spread the word that we will pay good gold for the short sword of Stalwart Shield.

Inquire of the butchers and the herdsmen, and learn who has been gelding goats of late. Perhaps some
goatherd would confess. Henceforth, no man of mine walks alone after dark.
These ones shall obey.
Daenerys pushed her hair back. Find these cowards for me. Find them, so that I might teach the
Harpys Sons what it means to wake the dragon.
Grey Worm saluted her. His Unsullied closed the shroud once more, lifted the dead man onto
their shoulders, and bore him from the hall. Ser Barristan Selmy remained behind. His hair was white,
and there were crows-feet at the corners of his pale blue eyes. Yet his back was still un-bent, and the
years had not yet robbed him of his skill at arms. Your Grace, he said, I fear your eunuchs are ill
suited for the tasks you set them.
Dany settled on her bench and wrapped her pelt about her shoulders once again. The Unsullied
are my finest warriors.
Soldiers, not warriors, if it please Your Grace. They were made for the battlefield, to stand
shoulder to shoulder behind their shields with their spears thrust out before them. Their training
teaches them to obey, fearlessly, perfectly, without thought or hesitation  not to unravel secrets or ask
questions.
Would knights serve me any better? Selmy was training knights for her, teaching the sons of
slaves to fight with lance and longsword in the Westerosi fashion  but what good would lances do
against cowards who killed from the shadows?
Not in this, the old man admitted. And Your Grace has no knights, save me. It will be years
before the boys are ready.
Then who, if not Unsullied? Dothraki would be even worse. Dothraki fought from horseback.
Mounted men were of more use in open fields and hills than in the narrow streets and alleys of the city.
Beyond Meereens walls of many-colored brick, Danys rule was tenuous at best. Thousands of slaves
still toiled on vast estates in the hills, growing wheat and olives, herding sheep and goats, and mining
salt and copper. Meereens storehouses held ample supplies of grain, oil, olives, dried fruit, and salted
meat, but the stores were dwindling. So Dany had dispatched her tiny khalasar to subdue the
hinterlands, under the command of her three bloodriders, whilst Brown Ben Plumm took his Second
Sons south to guard against Yunkish incursions.
The most crucial task of all she had entrusted to Daario Naharis, glib-tongued Daario with his
gold tooth and trident beard, smiling his wicked smile through purple whiskers. Beyond the eastern hills
was a range of rounded sandstone mountains, the Khyzai Pass, and Lhazar. If Daario could convince the
Lhazarene to reopen the overland trade routes, grains could be brought down the river or over the hills
at need  but the Lamb Men had no reason to love Meereen. When the Stormcrows return from
Lhazar, perhaps I can use them in the streets, she told Ser Barristan, but until then I have only the
Unsullied. Dany rose. You must excuse me, ser. The petitioners will soon be at my gates. I must don

my floppy ears and become their queen again. Summon Reznak and the Shavepate, Ill see them when
Im dressed.
As Your Grace commands. Selmy bowed.
The Great Pyramid shouldered eight hundred feet into the sky, from its huge square base to the
lofty apex where the queen kept her private chambers, surrounded by greenery and fragrant pools. As a
cool blue dawn broke over the city, Dany walked out onto the terrace. To the west sunlight blazed off
the golden domes of the Temple of the Graces, and etched deep shadows behind the stepped pyramids
of the mighty. In some of those pyramids, the Sons of the Harpy are plotting new murders even now, and
I am powerless to stop them.
Viserion sensed her disquiet. The white dragon lay coiled around a pear tree, his head resting on
his tail. When Dany passed his eyes came open, two pools of molten gold. His horns were gold as well,
and the scales that ran down his back from head to tail. Youre lazy, she told him, scratching under his
jaw. His scales were hot to the touch, like armor left too long in the sun. Dragons are fire made flesh.
She had read that in one of the books Ser Jorah had given her as a wedding gift. You should be hunting
with your brothers. Have you and Drogon been fighting again? Her dragons were growing wild of late.
Rhaegal had snapped at Irri, and Viserion had set Reznaks tokar ablaze the last time the seneschal had
called. I have left them too much to themselves, but where am I to find the time for them?
Viserions tail lashed sideways, thumping the trunk of the tree so hard that a pear came
tumbling down to land at Danys feet. His wings unfolded, and he half flew, half hopped onto the
parapet. He grows, she thought as he launched himself into the sky. They are all three growing. Soon
they will be large enough to bear my weight. Then she would fly as Aegon the Conqueror had flown, up
and up, until Meereen was so small that she could blot it out with her thumb.
She watched Viserion climb in widening circles until he was lost to sight beyond the muddy
waters of the Skahazadhan. Only then did Dany go back inside the pyramid, where Irri and Jhiqui were
waiting to brush the tangles from her hair and garb her as befit the Queen of Meereen, in a Ghiscari
tokar.
The garment was a clumsy thing, a long loose shapeless sheet that had to be wound around her
hips and under an arm and over a shoulder, its dangling fringes carefully layered and displayed. Wound
too loose, it was like to fall off; wound too tight, it would tangle, trip, and bind. Even wound properly,
the tokar required its wearer to hold it in place with the left hand. Walking in a tokar demanded small,
mincing steps and exquisite balance, lest one tread upon those heavy trailing fringes. It was not a
garment meant for any man who had to work. The tokar was a masters garment, a sign of wealth and
power.
Dany had wanted to ban the tokar when she took Meereen, but her advisors had convinced her
otherwise. The Mother of Dragons must don the tokar or be forever hated, warned the Green Grace,
Galazza Galare. In the wools of Westeros or a gown of Myrish lace, Your Radiance shall forever remain
a stranger amongst us, a grotesque outlander, a barbarian conqueror. Meereens queen must be a lady

of Old Ghis. Brown Ben Plumm, the captain of the Second Sons, had put it more succinctly. Man wants
to be the king o the rabbits, he best wear a pair o floppy ears.
The floppy ears she chose today were made of sheer white linen, with a fringe of golden tassels.
With Jhiquis help, she wound the tokar about herself correctly on her third attempt. Irri fetched her
crown, wrought in the shape of the three-headed dragon of her House. Its coils were gold, its wings
silver, its three heads ivory, onyx, and jade. Danys neck and shoulders would be stiff and sore from the
weight of it before the day was done. A crown should not sit easy on the head. One of her royal
forebears had said that, once. Some Aegon, but which one? Five Aegons had ruled the Seven Kingdoms
of Westeros. There would have been a sixth, but the Usurpers dogs had murdered her brothers son
when he was still a babe at the breast. If he had lived, I might have married him. Aegon would have been
closer to my age than Viserys. Dany had only been conceived when Aegon and his sister were murdered.
Their father, her brother Rhaegar, perished even earlier, slain by the Usurper on the Trident. Her
brother Viserys had died screaming in Vaes Dothrak with a crown of molten gold upon his head. They
will kill me too if I allow it. The knives that slew my Stalwart Shield were meant for me.
She had not forgotten the slave children the Great Masters had nailed up along the road from
Yunkai. They had numbered one hundred sixty-three, a child every mile, nailed to mileposts with one
arm outstretched to point her way. After Meereen had fallen, Dany had nailed up a like number of Great
Masters. Swarms of flies had attended their slow dying, and the stench had lingered long in the plaza.
Yet some days she feared that she had not gone far enough. These Meereenese were a sly and stubborn
people who resisted her at every turn. They had freed their slaves, yes  only to hire them back as
servants at wages so meagre that most could scarce afford to eat. Those too old or young to be of use
had been cast into the streets, along with the infirm and the crippled. And still the Great Masters
gathered atop their lofty pyramids to complain of how the dragon queen had filled their noble city with
hordes of unwashed beggars, thieves, and whores.
To rule Meereen I must win the Meereenese, however much I may despise them. I am ready,
she told Irri.
Reznak and Skahaz waited atop the marble steps. Great queen, declared Reznak mo Reznak,
you are so radiant today I fear to look on you. The seneschal wore a tokar of maroon silk with a golden
fringe. A small, damp man, he smelled as if he had bathed in perfume and spoke a bastard form of High
Valyrian, much corrupted and flavored with a thick Ghiscari growl.
You are kind to say so, Dany answered, in the same tongue.
My queen, growled Skahaz mo Kandaq, of the shaven head. Ghiscari hair was dense and wiry;
it had long been the fashion for the men of the Slaver Cities to tease it into horns and spikes and wings.
By shaving, Skahaz had put old Meereen behind him to accept the new, and his kin had done the same
after his example. Others followed, though whether from fear, fashion, or ambition, Dany could not say;
shavepates, they were called. Skahaz was the Shavepate  and the vilest of traitors to the Sons of the
Harpy and their ilk. We were told about the eunuch.

His name was Stalwart Shield.
More will die unless the murderers are punished. Even with his shaven scalp, Skahaz had an
odious facea beetled brow, small eyes with heavy bags beneath them, a big nose dark with
blackheads, oily skin that looked more yellow than the usual amber of Ghiscari. It was a blunt, brutal,
angry face. She could only pray it was an honest one as well.
How can I punish them when I do not know who they are? Dany demanded of him. Tell me
that, bold Skahaz.
You have no lack of enemies, Your Grace. You can see their pyramids from your terrace. Zhak,
Hazkar, Ghazeen, Merreq, Loraq, all the old slaving families. Pahl. Pahl, most of all. A house of women
now. Bitter old women with a taste for blood. Women do not forget. Women do not forgive.
No, Dany thought, and the Usurpers dogs will learn that, when I return to Westeros. It was true
that there was blood between her and the House of Pahl. Oznak zo Pahl had been cut down by Strong
Belwas in single combat. His father, commander of Meereens city watch, had died defending the gates
when Josos Cock smashed them into splinters. Three uncles had been among the hundred sixty-three
on the plaza. How much gold have we offered for information concerning the Sons of the Harpy? Dany
asked.
One hundred honors, if it please Your Radiance.
One thousand honors would please us more. Make it so.
Your Grace has not asked for my counsel, said Skahaz Shavepate, but I say that blood must
pay for blood. Take one man from each of the families I have named and kill him. The next time one of
yours is slain, take two from each great House and kill them both. There will not be a third murder.
Reznak squealed in distress. Noooo  gentle queen, such savagery would bring down the ire of
the gods. We will find the murderers, I promise you, and when we do they will prove to be baseborn
filth, you shall see.
The seneschal was as bald as Skahaz, though in his case the gods were responsible. Should any
hair be so insolent as to appear, my barber stands with razor ready, he had assured her when she
raised him up. There were times when Dany wondered if that razor might not be better saved for
Reznaks throat. He was a useful man, but she liked him little and trusted him less. The Undying of Qarth
had told her she would be thrice betrayed. Mirri Maz Duur had been the first, Ser Jorah the second.
Would Reznak be the third? The Shavepate? Daario? Or will it be someone I would never suspect, Ser
Barristan or Grey Worm or Missandei?
Skahaz, she told the Shavepate, I thank you for your counsel. Reznak, see what one thousand
honors may accomplish. Clutching her tokar, Daenerys swept past them down the broad marble stair.
She took one step at a time, lest she trip over her fringe and go tumbling headfirst into court.

Missandei announced her. The little scribe had a sweet, strong voice. All kneel for Daenerys
Stormborn, the Unburnt, Queen of Meereen, Queen of the Andals and the Rhoynar and the First Men,
Khaleesi of Great Grass Sea, Breaker of Shackles, and Mother of Dragons.
The hall had filled. Unsullied stood with their backs to the pillars, holding shields and spears, the
spikes on their caps jutting upward like a row of knives. The Meereenese had gathered beneath the
eastern windows. Her freedmen stood well apart from their former masters. Until they stand together,
Meereen will know no peace. Arise. Dany settled onto her bench. The hall rose. That at least they do
as one.
Reznak mo Reznak had a list. Custom demanded that the queen begin with the Astapori envoy,
a former slave who called himself Lord Ghael, though no one seemed to know what he was lord of.
Lord Ghael had a mouth of brown and rotten teeth and the pointed yellow face of a weasel. He
also had a gift. Cleon the Great sends these slippers as a token of his love for Daenerys Stormborn, the
Mother of Dragons.
Irri slid the slippers onto Danys feet. They were gilded leather, decorated with green freshwater
pearls. Does the butcher king believe a pair of pretty slippers will win my hand? King Cleon is most
generous. You may thank him for his lovely gift. Lovely, but made for a child. Dany had small feet, yet
the pointed slippers mashed her toes together.
Great Cleon will be pleased to know they pleased you, said Lord Ghael. His Magnificence bids
me say that he stands ready to defend the Mother of Dragons from all her foes.
If he proposes again that I wed King Cleon, Ill throw a slipper at his head, Dany thought, but for
once the Astapori envoy made no mention of a royal marriage. Instead he said, The time has come for
Astapor and Meereen to end the savage reign of the Wise Masters of Yunkai, who are sworn foes to all
those who live in freedom. Great Cleon bids me tell you that he and his new Unsullied will soon march.
His new Unsullied are an obscene jape. King Cleon would be wise to tend his own gardens and
let the Yunkaii tend theirs. It was not that Dany harbored any love for Yunkai. She was coming to
regret leaving the Yellow City untaken after defeating its army in the field. The Wise Masters had
returned to slaving as soon as she moved on, and were busy raising levies, hiring sellswords, and making
alliances against her.
Cleon the self-styled Great was no better, however. The Butcher King had restored slavery to
Astapor, the only change being that the former slaves were now the masters and the former masters
were now the slaves.
I am only a young girl and know little of the ways of war, she told Lord Ghael, but we have
heard that Astapor is starving. Let King Cleon feed his people before he leads them out to battle. She
made a gesture of dismissal. Ghael withdrew.
Magnificence, prompted Reznak mo Reznak, will you hear the noble Hizdahr zo Loraq?

Again? Dany nodded, and Hizdahr strode forth; a tall man, very slender, with flawless amber
skin. He bowed on the same spot where Stalwart Shield had lain in death not long before. I need this
man, Dany reminded herself. Hizdahr was a wealthy merchant with many friends in Meereen, and more
across the seas. He had visited Volantis, Lys, and Qarth, had kin in Tolos and Elyria, and was even said to
wield some influence in New Ghis, where the Yunkaii were trying to stir up enmity against Dany and her
rule.
And he was rich. Famously and fabulously rich 
And like to grow richer, if I grant his petition. When Dany had closed the citys fighting pits, the
value of pit shares had plummeted. Hizdahr zo Loraq had grabbed them up with both hands, and now
owned most of the fighting pits in Meereen.
The nobleman had wings of wiry red-black hair sprouting from his temples. They made him look
as if his head were about to take flight. His long face was made even longer by a beard bound with rings
of gold. His purple tokar was fringed with amethysts and pearls. Your Radiance will know the reason I
am here.
Why, it must be because you have no other purpose but to plague me. How many times have I
refused you?
Five times, Your Magnificence.
Six now. I will not have the fighting pits reopened.
If Your Majesty will hear my arguments 
I have. Five times. Have you brought new arguments?
Old arguments, Hizdahr admitted, new words. Lovely words, and courteous, more apt to
move a queen.
It is your cause I find wanting, not your courtesies. I have heard your arguments so often I
could plead your case myself. Shall I? Dany leaned forward. The fighting pits have been a part of
Meereen since the city was founded. The combats are profoundly religious in nature, a blood sacrifice to
the gods of Ghis. The mortal art of Ghis is not mere butchery but a display of courage, skill, and strength
most pleasing to your gods. Victorious fighters are pampered and acclaimed, and the slain are honored
and remembered. By reopening the pits I would show the people of Meereen that I respect their ways
and customs. The pits are far-famed across the world. They draw trade to Meereen, and fill the citys
coffers with coin from the ends of the earth. All men share a taste for blood, a taste the pits help slake.
In that way they make Meereen more tranquil. For criminals condemned to die upon the sands, the pits
represent a judgment by battle, a last chance for a man to prove his innocence. She leaned back again,
with a toss of her head. There. How have I done?

Your Radiance has stated the case much better than I could have hoped to do myself. I see that
you are eloquent as well as beautiful. I am quite persuaded.
She had to laugh. Ah, but I am not.
Your Magnificence, whispered Reznak mo Reznak in her ear, it is customary for the city to
claim one-tenth of all the profits from the fighting pits, after expenses, as a tax. That coin might be put
to many noble uses.
It might  though if we were to reopen the pits, we should take our tenth before expenses. I
am only a young girl and know little of such matters, but I dwelt with Xaro Xhoan Daxos long enough to
learn that much.
Hizdahr, if you could marshal armies as you marshal arguments, you could conquer the world 
but my answer is still no. For the sixth time.
The queen has spoken. He bowed again, as deeply as before. His pearls and amethysts
clattered softly against the marble floor. A very limber man was Hizdahr zo Loraq.
He might be handsome, but for that silly hair. Reznak and the Green Grace had been urging
Dany to take a Meereenese noble for her husband, to reconcile the city to her rule. Hizdahr zo Loraq
might be worth a careful look. Sooner him than Skahaz. The Shavepate had offered to set aside his wife
for her, but the notion made her shudder. Hizdahr at least knew how to smile.
Magnificence, said Reznak, consulting his list, the noble Grazdan zo Galare would address
you. Will you hear him?
It would be my pleasure, said Dany, admiring the glimmer of the gold and the sheen of the
green pearls on Cleons slippers while doing her best to ignore the pinching in her toes. Grazdan, she
had been forewarned, was a cousin of the Green Grace, whose support she had found invaluable. The
priestess was a voice for peace, acceptance, and obedience to lawful authority. I can give her cousin a
respectful hearing, whatever he desires.
What he desired turned out to be gold. Dany had refused to compensate any of the Great
Masters for the value of their slaves, but the Meereenese kept devising other ways to squeeze coin from
her. The noble Grazdan had once owned a slave woman who was a very fine weaver, it seemed; the
fruits of her loom were greatly valued, not only in Meereen, but in New Ghis and Astapor and Qarth.
When this woman had grown old, Grazdan had purchased half a dozen young girls and commanded the
crone to instruct them in the secrets of her craft. The old woman was dead now. The young ones, freed,
had opened a shop by the harbor wall to sell their weavings. Grazdan zo Galare asked that he be granted
a portion of their earnings. They owe their skill to me, he insisted. I plucked them from the auction
bloc and gave them to the loom.
Dany listened quietly, her face still. When he was done, she said, What was the name of the old
weaver?

The slave? Grazdan shifted his weight, frowning. She was  Elza, it might have been. Or Ella.
It was six years ago she died. I have owned so many slaves, Your Grace.
Let us say Elza. Here is our ruling. From the girls, you shall have nothing. It was Elza who taught
them weaving, not you. From you, the girls shall have a new loom, the finest coin can buy. That is for
forgetting the name of the old woman.
Reznak would have summoned another tokar next, but Dany insisted that he call upon a
freedman. Thereafter she alternated between the former masters and the former slaves. Many and
more of the matters brought before her involved redress. Meereen had been sacked savagely after its
fall. The stepped pyramids of the mighty had been spared the worst of the ravages, but the humbler
parts of the city had been given over to an orgy of looting and killing as the citys slaves rose up and the
starving hordes who had followed her from Yunkai and Astapor poured through the broken gates. Her
Unsullied had finally restored order, but the sack left a plague of problems in its wake. And so they came
to see the queen.
A rich woman came, whose husband and sons had died defending the city walls. During the sack
she had fled to her brother in fear. When she returned, she found her house had been turned into a
brothel. The whores had bedecked themselves in her jewels and clothes. She wanted her house back,
and her jewels. They can keep the clothes, she allowed. Dany granted her the jewels but ruled the
house was lost when she abandoned it.
A former slave came, to accuse a certain noble of the Zhak. The man had recently taken to wife
a freedwoman who had been the nobles bed-warmer before the city fell. The noble had taken her
maidenhood, used her for his pleasure, and gotten her with child. Her new husband wanted the noble
gelded for the crime of rape, and he wanted a purse of gold as well, to pay him for raising the nobles
bastard as his own. Dany granted him the gold, but not the gelding. When he lay with her, your wife
was his property, to do with as he would. By law, there was no rape. Her decision did not please him,
she could see, but if she gelded every man who ever forced a bedslave, she would soon rule a city of
eunuchs.
A boy came, younger than Dany, slight and scarred, dressed up in a frayed grey tokar trailing
silver fringe. His voice broke when he told of how two of his fathers household slaves had risen up the
night the gate broke. One had slain his father, the other his elder brother. Both had raped his mother
before killing her as well. The boy had escaped with no more than the scar upon his face, but one of the
murderers was still living in his fathers house, and the other had joined the queens soldiers as one of
the Mothers Men. He wanted them both hanged.
I am queen over a city built on dust and death. Dany had no choice but to deny him. She had
declared a blanket pardon for all crimes committed during the sack. Nor would she punish slaves for
rising up against their masters.
When she told him, the boy rushed at her, but his feet tangled in his tokar and he went
sprawling headlong on the purple marble. Strong Belwas was on him at once. The huge brown eunuch

yanked him up one-handed and shook him like a mastiff with a rat. Enough, Belwas, Dany called.
Release him. To the boy she said, Treasure that tokar, for it saved your life. You are only a boy, so we
will forget what happened here. You should do the same. But as he left the boy looked back over his
shoulder, and when she saw his eyes Dany thought, The Harpy has another Son.
By midday Daenerys was feeling the weight of the crown upon her head, and the hardness of
the bench beneath her. With so many still waiting on her pleasure, she did not stop to eat. Instead she
dispatched Jhiqui to the kitchens for a platter of flatbread, olives, figs, and cheese. She nibbled whilst
she listened, and sipped from a cup of watered wine. The figs were fine, the olives even finer, but the
wine left a tart metallic aftertaste in her mouth. The small pale yellow grapes native to these regions
produced a notably inferior vintage. We shall have no trade in wine. Besides, the Great Masters had
burned the best arbors along with the olive trees.
In the afternoon a sculptor came, proposing to replace the head of the great bronze harpy in the
Plaza of Purification with one cast in Danys image. She denied him with as much courtesy as she could
muster. A pike of unprecedented size had been caught in the Skahazadhan, and the fisherman wished to
give it to the queen. She admired the fish extravagantly, rewarded the fisherman with a purse of silver,
and sent the pike to her kitchens. A coppersmith had fashioned her a suit of burnished rings to wear to
war. She accepted it with fulsome thanks; it was lovely to behold, and all that burnished copper would
flash prettily in the sun, though if actual battle threatened, she would sooner be clad in steel. Even a
young girl who knew nothing of the ways of war knew that.
The slippers the Butcher King had sent her had grown too uncomfortable. Dany kicked them off
and sat with one foot tucked beneath her and the other swinging back and forth. It was not a very regal
pose, but she was tired of being regal. The crown had given her a headache, and her buttocks had gone
to sleep. Ser Barristan, she called, I know what quality a king needs most.
Courage, Your Grace?
Cheeks like iron, she teased. All I do is sit.
Your Grace takes too much on herself. You should allow your councillors to shoulder more of
your burdens.
I have too many councillors and too few cushions. Dany turned to Reznak. How many more?
 Three-and-twenty, if it please Your Magnificence. With as many claims. The seneschal
consulted some papers. One calf and three goats. The rest will be sheep or lambs, no doubt.
 Three-and-twenty. Dany sighed. My dragons have developed a prodigious taste for mutton
since we began to pay the shepherds for their kills. Have these claims been proven?
Some men have brought burnt bones.

Men make fires. Men cook mutton. Burnt bones prove nothing. Brown Ben says there are red
wolves in the hills outside the city, and jack-als and wild dogs. Must we pay good silver for every lamb
that goes astray between Yunkai and the Skahazadhan?
No, Magnificence. Reznak bowed. Shall I send these rascals away, or will you want them
scourged?
Daenerys shifted on the bench. No man should ever fear to come to me. Some claims were
false, she did not doubt, but more were genuine. Her dragons had grown too large to be content with
rats and cats and dogs. The more they eat, the larger they will grow, Ser Barristan had warned her, and
the larger they grow, the more theyll eat. Drogon especially ranged far afield and could easily devour a
sheep a day. Pay them for the value of their animals, she told Reznak, but henceforth claimants must
present themselves at the Temple of the Graces and swear a holy oath before the gods of Ghis.
It shall be done. Reznak turned to the petitioners. Her Magnificence the Queen has
consented to compensate each of you for the animals you have lost, he told them in the Ghiscari
tongue. Present yourselves to my factors on the morrow, and you shall be paid in coin or kind, as you
prefer.
The pronouncement was received in sullen silence. You would think they might be happier, Dany
thought. They have what they came for. Is there no way to please these people?
One man lingered behind as the rest were filing outa squat man with a windburnt face,
shabbily dressed. His hair was a cap of coarse red-black wire cropped about his ears, and in one hand he
held a sad cloth sack. He stood with his head down, gazing at the marble floor as if he had quite
forgotten where he was. And what does this one want? Dany wondered.
All kneel for Daenerys Stormborn, the Unburnt, Queen of Meereen, Queen of the Andals and the
Rhoynar and the First Men, Khaleesi of Great Grass Sea, Breaker of Shackles, and Mother of Dragons,
cried Missandei in her high, sweet voice.
As Dany stood, her tokar began to slip. She caught it and tugged it back in place. You with the
sack, she called, did you wish to speak with us? You may approach.
When he raised his head, his eyes were red and raw as open sores. Dany glimpsed Ser Barristan
sliding closer, a white shadow at her side. The man approached in a stumbling shuffle, one step and then
another, clutching his sack. Is he drunk, or ill? she wondered. There was dirt beneath his cracked yellow
fingernails.
What is it? Dany asked. Do you have some grievance to lay before us, some petition? What
would you have of us?
His tongue flicked nervously over chapped, cracked lips. I  I brought 
Bones? she said, impatiently. Burnt bones?

He lifted the sack, and spilled its contents on the marble.
Bones they were, broken bones and blackened. The longer ones had been cracked open for their
marrow.
It were the black one, the man said, in a Ghiscari growl, the winged shadow. He come down
from the sky and  and 
No. Dany shivered. No, no, oh no.
Are you deaf, fool? Reznak mo Reznak demanded of the man. Did you not hear my
pronouncement? See my factors on the morrow, and you shall be paid for your sheep.
Reznak, Ser Barristan said quietly, hold your tongue and open your eyes. Those are no sheep
bones.
No, Dany thought, those are the bones of a child.
JON
The white wolf raced through a black wood, beneath a pale cliff as tall as the sky. The moon ran
with him, slipping through a tangle of bare branches overhead, across the starry sky.
Snow, the moon murmured. The wolf made no answer. Snow crunched beneath his paws. The
wind sighed through the trees.
Far off, he could hear his packmates calling to him, like to like. They were hunting too. A wild
rain lashed down upon his black brother as he tore at the flesh of an enormous goat, washing the blood
from his side where the goats long horn had raked him. In another place, his little sister lifted her head
to sing to the moon, and a hundred small grey cousins broke off their hunt to sing with her. The hills
were warmer where they were, and full of food. Many a night his sisters pack gorged on the flesh of
sheep and cows and horses, the prey of men, and sometimes even on the flesh of man himself.
Snow, the moon called down again, cackling. The white wolf padded along the man trail
beneath the icy cliff. The taste of blood was on his tongue, and his ears rang to the song of the hundred
cousins. Once they had been six, five whimpering blind in the snow beside their dead mother, sucking
cool milk from her hard dead nipples whilst he crawled off alone. Four remained  and one the white
wolf could no longer sense.
Snow, the moon insisted.
The white wolf ran from it, racing toward the cave of night where the sun had hidden, his breath
frosting in the air. On starless nights the great cliff was as black as stone, a darkness towering high above

the wide world, but when the moon came out it shimmered pale and icy as a frozen stream. The wolfs
pelt was thick and shaggy, but when the wind blew along the ice no fur could keep the chill out. On the
other side the wind was colder still, the wolf sensed. That was where his brother was, the grey brother
who smelled of summer.
Snow. An icicle tumbled from a branch. The white wolf turned and bared his teeth. Snow!
His fur rose bristling, as the woods dissolved around him. Snow, snow, snow! He heard the beat of
wings. Through the gloom a raven flew.
It landed on Jon Snows chest with a thump and a scrabbling of claws. SNOW! it screamed into
his face.
I hear you. The room was dim, his pallet hard. Grey light leaked through the shutters,
promising another bleak cold day. Is this how you woke Mormont? Get your feathers out of my face.
Jon wriggled an arm out from under his blankets to shoo the raven off. It was a big bird, old and bold
and scruffy, utterly without fear. Snow, it cried, flapping to his bedpost. Snow, snow. Jon filled his
fist with a pillow and let fly, but the bird took to the air. The pillow struck the wall and burst, scattering
stuffing everywhere just as Dolorous Edd Tollett poked his head through the door. Beg pardon, he
said, ignoring the flurry of feathers, shall I fetch mlord some breakfast?
Corn, cried the raven. Corn, corn.
Roast raven, Jon suggested. And half a pint of ale. Having a steward fetch and serve for him
still felt strange; not long ago, it would have been him fetching breakfast for Lord Commander
Mormont.
Three corns and one roast raven, said Dolorous Edd. Very good, mlord, only Hobbs made
boiled eggs, black sausage, and apples stewed with prunes. The apples stewed with prunes are
excellent, except for the prunes. I wont eat prunes myself. Well, there was one time when Hobb
chopped them up with chestnuts and carrots and hid them in a hen. Never trust a cook, my lord. Theyll
prune you when you least expect it.
Later. Breakfast could wait; Stannis could not. Any trouble from the stockades last night?
Not since you put guards on the guards, mlord.
Good. A thousand wildlings had been penned up beyond the Wall, the captives Stannis
Baratheon had taken when his knights had smashed Mance Rayders patchwork host. Many of the
prisoners were women, and some of the guards had been sneaking them out to warm their beds. Kings
men, queens men, it did not seem to matter; a few black brothers had tried the same thing. Men were
men, and these were the only women for a thousand leagues.
Two more wildlings turned up to surrender, Edd went on. A mother with a girl clinging to her
skirts. She had a boy babe too, all swaddled up in fur, but he was dead.

Dead, said the raven. It was one of the birds favorite words. Dead, dead, dead.
They had free folk drifting in most every night, starved half-frozen creatures who had run from
the battle beneath the Wall only to crawl back when they realized there was no safe place to run to.
Was the mother questioned? Jon asked. Stannis Baratheon had smashed Mance Rayders host and
made the King-Beyond-the-Wall his captive  but the wildlings were still out there, the Weeper and
Tormund Giantsbane and thousands more.
Aye, mlord, said Edd, but all she knows is that she ran off during the battle and hid in the
woods after. We filled her full of porridge, sent her to the pens, and burned the babe.
Burning dead children had ceased to trouble Jon Snow; live ones were another matter. Two
kings to wake the dragon. The father first and then the son, so both die kings. The words had been
murmured by one of the queens men as Maester Aemon had cleaned his wounds. Jon had tried to
dismiss them as his fever talking. Aemon had demurred. There is power in a kings blood, the old
maester had warned, and better men than Stannis have done worse things than this. The king can be
harsh and unforgiving, aye, but a babe still on the breast? Only a monster would give a living child to the
flames.
Jon pissed in darkness, filling his chamber pot as the Old Bears raven muttered complaints. The
wolf dreams had been growing stronger, and he found himself remembering them even when awake.
Ghost knows that Grey Wind is dead. Robb had died at the Twins, betrayed by men hed believed his
friends, and his wolf had perished with him. Bran and Rickon had been murdered too, beheaded at the
behest of Theon Greyjoy, who had once been their lord fathers ward  but if dreams did not lie, their
direwolves had escaped. At Queenscrown, one had come out of the darkness to save Jons life. Summer,
it had to be. His fur was grey, and Shaggydog is black. He wondered if some part of his dead brothers
lived on inside their wolves.
He filled his basin from the flagon of water beside his bed, washed his face and hands, donned a
clean set of black woolens, laced up a black leather jerkin, and pulled on a pair of well-worn boots.
Mormonts raven watched with shrewd black eyes, then fluttered to the window. Do you take me for
your thrall? When Jon folded back the window with its thick diamond-shaped panes of yellow glass, the
chill of the morning hit him in the face. He took a breath to clear away the cobwebs of the night as the
raven flapped away. That bird is too clever by half. It had been the Old Bears companion for long years,
but that had not stopped it from eating Mormonts face once he died.
Outside his bedchamber a flight of steps descended to a larger room furnished with a scarred
pinewood table and a dozen oak-and-leather chairs. With Stannis in the Kings Tower and the Lord
Commanders Tower burned to a shell, Jon had established himself in Donal Noyes modest rooms
behind the armory. In time, no doubt, he would need larger quarters, but for the moment these would
serve whilst he accustomed himself to command.
The grant that the king had presented him for signature was on the table beneath a silver
drinking cup that had once been Donal Noyes. The one-armed smith had left few personal effects: the

cup, six pennies and a copper star, a niello brooch with a broken clasp, a musty brocade doublet that
bore the stag of Storms End. His treasures were his tools, and the swords and knives he made. His life
was at the forge. Jon moved the cup aside and read the parchment once again. If I put my seal to this, I
will forever be remembered as the lord commander who gave away the Wall, he thought, but if I should
refuse 
Stannis Baratheon was proving to be a prickly guest, and a restless one. He had ridden down the
kingsroad almost as far as Queenscrown, prowled through the empty hovels of Moles Town, inspected
the ruined forts at Queensgate and Oakenshield. Each night he walked atop the Wall with Lady
Melisandre, and during the days he visited the stockades, picking captives out for the red woman to
question. He does not like to be balked. This would not be a pleasant morning, Jon feared.
From the armory came a clatter of shields and swords, as the latest lot of boys and raw recruits
armed themselves. He could hear the voice of Iron Emmett telling them to be quick about it. Cotter Pyke
had not been pleased to lose him, but the young ranger had a gift for training men. He loves to fight, and
hell teach his boys to love it too. Or so he hoped.
Jons cloak hung on a peg by the door, his sword belt on another. He donned them both and
made his way to the armory. The rug where Ghost slept was empty, he saw. Two guardsmen stood
inside the doors, clad in black cloaks and iron halfhelms, spears in their hands. Will mlord be wanting a
tail? asked Garse.
I think I can find the Kings Tower by myself. Jon hated having guards trailing after him
everywhere he went. It made him feel like a mother duck leading a procession of ducklings.
Iron Emmetts lads were well at it in the yard, blunted swords slamming into shields and ringing
against one another. Jon stopped to watch a moment as Horse pressed Hop-Robin back toward the well.
Horse had the makings of a good fighter, he decided. He was strong and getting stronger, and his
instincts were sound. Hop-Robin was another tale. His clubfoot was bad enough, but he was afraid of
getting hit as well. Perhaps we can make a steward of him. The fight ended abruptly, with Hop-Robin on
the ground.
Well fought, Jon said to Horse, but you drop your shield too low when pressing an attack. You
will want to correct that, or it is like to get you killed.
Yes, mlord. Ill keep it higher next time. Horse pulled Hop-Robin to his feet, and the smaller
boy made a clumsy bow.
A few of Stanniss knights were sparring on the far side of the yard. Kings men in one corner and
queens men in another, Jon did not fail to note, but only a few. Its too cold for most of them. As he
strode past them, a booming voice called after him. BOY! YOU THERE! BOY!
Boy was not the worst of the things that Jon Snow had been called since being chosen lord
commander. He ignored it.

Snow, the voice insisted, Lord Commander.
This time he stopped. Ser?
The knight overtopped him by six inches. A man who bears Valyrian steel should use it for more
than scratching his arse.
Jon had seen this one about the castlea knight of great renown, to hear him tell it. During the
battle beneath the Wall, Ser Godry Farring had slain a fleeing giant, pounding after him on horseback
and driving a lance through his back, then dismounting to hack off the creatures pitiful small head. The
queens men had taken to calling him Godry the Giantslayer.
Jon remembered Ygritte, crying. I am the last of the giants. I use Longclaw when I must, ser.
How well, though? Ser Godry drew his own blade. Show us. I promise not to hurt you, lad.
How kind of you. Some other time, ser. I fear that I have other duties just now.
You fear. I see that. Ser Godry grinned at his friends. He fears, he repeated, for the slow
ones.
You will excuse me. Jon showed them his back.
Castle Black seemed a bleak and forlorn place in the pale dawn light. My command, Jon Snow
reflected ruefully, as much a ruin as it is a strong-hold. The Lord Commanders Tower was a shell, the
Common Hall a pile of blackened timbers, and Hardins Tower looked as if the next gust of wind would
knock it over  though it had looked that way for years. Behind them rose the Wall: immense,
forbidding, frigid, acrawl with builders pushing up a new switchback stair to join the remnants of the old.
They worked from dawn to dusk. Without the stair, there was no way to reach the top of the Wall save
by winch. That would not serve if the wildlings should attack again.
Above the Kings Tower the great golden battle standard of House Baratheon cracked like a whip
from the roof where Jon Snow had prowled with bow in hand not long ago, slaying Thenns and free folk
beside Satin and Deaf Dick Follard. Two queens men stood shivering on the steps, their hands tucked up
into their armpits and their spears leaning against the door. Those cloth gloves will never serve, Jon
told them. See Bowen Marsh on the morrow, and hell give you each a pair of leather gloves lined with
fur.
We will, mlord, and thank you, said the older guard.
Thats if our bloody hands arent froze off, the younger added, his breath a pale mist. I used
to think that it got cold up in the Dornish Marches. What did I know?
Nothing, thought Jon Snow, the same as me.
Halfway up the winding steps, he came upon Samwell Tarly, headed down. Are you coming
from the king? Jon asked him.

Maester Aemon sent me with a letter.
I see. Some lords trusted their maesters to read their letters and convey the contents, but
Stannis insisted on breaking the seals himself. How did Stannis take it?
Not happily, by his face. Sam dropped his voice to a whisper. I am not supposed to speak of
it.
Then dont. Jon wondered which of his fathers bannermen had refused King Stannis homage
this time. He was quick enough to spread the word when Karhold declared for him. How are you and
your longbow getting on?
I found a good book about archery. Sam frowned. Doing it is harder than reading about it,
though. I get blisters.
Keep at it. We may need your bow on the Wall if the Others turn up some dark night.
Oh, I hope not.
More guards stood outside the kings solar. No arms are allowed in His Graces presence, my
lord, their serjeant said. Ill need that sword. Your knives as well. It would do no good to protest, Jon
knew. He handed them his weaponry.
Within the solar the air was warm. Lady Melisandre was seated near the fire, her ruby
glimmering against the pale skin of her throat. Ygritte had been kissed by fire; the red priestess was fire,
and her hair was blood and flame. Stannis stood behind the rough-hewn table where the Old Bear had
once been wont to sit and take his meals. Covering the table was a large map of the north, painted on a
ragged piece of hide. A tallow candle weighed down one end of it, a steel gauntlet the other.
The king wore lambswool breeches and a quilted doublet, yet somehow he looked as stiff and
uncomfortable as if he had been clad in plate and mail. His skin was pale leather, his beard cropped so
short that it might have been painted on. A fringe about his temples was all that remained of his black
hair. In his hand was a parchment with a broken seal of dark green wax.
Jon took a knee. The king frowned at him, and rattled the parchment angrily. Rise. Tell me, who
is Lyanna Mormont?
One of Lady Maeges daughters, Sire. The youngest. She was named for my lord fathers sister.
To curry your lord fathers favor, I dont doubt. I know how that game is played. How old is this
wretched girl child?
Jon had to think a moment. Ten. Or near enough to make no matter. Might I know how she has
offended Your Grace?
Stannis read from the letter. Bear Island knows no king but the King in the North, whose name
is STARK. A girl of ten, you say, and she presumes to scold her lawful king. His close-cropped beard lay

like a shadow over his hollow cheeks. See that you keep these tidings to yourself, Lord Snow. Karhold is
with me, that is all the men need know. I will not have your brothers trading tales of how this child spat
on me.
As you command, Sire. Maege Mormont had ridden south with Robb, Jon knew. Her eldest
daughter had joined the Young Wolfs host as well. Even if both of them had died, however, Lady Maege
had other daughters, some with children of their own. Had they gone with Robb as well? Surely Lady
Maege would have left at least one of the older girls behind as castellan. He did not understand why
Lyanna should be writing Stannis, and could not help but wonder if the girls answer might have been
different if the letter had been sealed with a direwolf instead of a crowned stag, and signed by Jon Stark,
Lord of Winterfell. It is too late for such misgivings. You made your choice.
Two score ravens were sent out, the king complained, yet we get no response but silence and
defiance. Homage is the duty every leal subject owes his king. Yet your fathers bannermen all turn their
back on me, save the Karstarks. Is Arnolf Karstark the only man of honor in the north?
Arnolf Karstark was the late Lord Rickards uncle. He had been made the castellan of Karhold
when his nephew and his sons went south with Robb, and he had been the first to respond to King
Stanniss call for homage, with a raven declaring his allegiance. The Karstarks have no other choice, Jon
might have said. Rickard Karstark had betrayed the direwolf and spilled the blood of lions. The stag was
Karholds only hope. In times as confused as these, even men of honor must wonder where their duty
lies. Your Grace is not the only king in the realm demanding homage.
Lady Melisandre stirred. Tell me, Lord Snow  where were these other kings when the wild
people stormed your Wall?
A thousand leagues away and deaf to our need, Jon replied. I have not forgotten that, my
lady. Nor will I. But my fathers bannermen have wives and children to protect, and smallfolk who will
die should they choose wrongly. His Grace asks much of them. Give them time, and you will have your
answers.
Answers such as this? Stannis crushed Lyannas letter in his fist.
Even in the north men fear the wroth of Tywin Lannister. Boltons make bad enemies as well. It
is not happenstance that put a flayed man on their banners. They north rode with Robb, bled with him,
died for him. They have supped on grief and death, and now you come to offer them another serving.
Do you blame them if they hang back? Forgive me, Your Grace, but some will look at you and see only
another doomed pretender.
If His Grace is doomed, your realm is doomed as well, said Lady Melisandre. Remember that,
Lord Snow. It is the one true king of Westeros who stands before you.
Jon kept his face a mask. As you say, my lady.

Stannis snorted. You spend your words as if every one were a golden dragon. I wonder, how
much gold do you have laid by?
Gold? Are those the dragons the red woman means to wake? Dragons made of gold? Such
taxes as we collect are paid in kind, Your Grace. The Watch is rich in turnips but poor in coin.
Turnips are not like to appease Salladhor Saan. I require gold or silver.
For that, you need White Harbor. The city cannot compare to Old-town or Kings Landing, but it
is still a thriving port. Lord Manderly is the richest of my lord fathers bannermen.
Lord Too-Fat-to-Sit-a-Horse. The letter that Lord Wyman Manderly had sent back from White
Harbor had spoken of his age and infirmity, and little more. Stannis had commanded Jon not to speak of
that one either.
Perhaps his lordship would fancy a wildling wife, said Lady Melisandre. Is this fat man
married, Lord Snow?
His lady wife is long dead. Lord Wyman has two grown sons, and grandchildren by the elder.
And he is too fat to sit a horse, thirty stone at least. Val would never have him.
Just once you might try to give me an answer that would please me, Lord Snow, the king
grumbled.
I would hope the truth would please you, Sire. Your men call Val a princess, but to the free folk
she is only the sister of their kings dead wife. If you force her to marry a man she does not want, she is
like to slit his throat on their wedding night. Even if she accepts her husband, that does not mean the
wildlings will follow him, or you. The only man who can bind them to your cause is Mance Rayder.
I know that, Stannis said, unhappily. I have spent hours speaking with the man. He knows
much and more of our true enemy, and there is cunning in him, Ill grant you. Even if he were to
renounce his kingship, though, the man remains an oathbreaker. Suffer one deserter to live, and you
encourage others to desert. No. Laws should be made of iron, not of pudding. Mance Rayders life is
forfeit by every law of the Seven Kingdoms.
The law ends at the Wall, Your Grace. You could make good use of Mance.
I mean to. Ill burn him, and the north will see how I deal with turncloaks and traitors. I have
other men to lead the wildlings. And I have Rayders son, do not forget. Once the father dies, his whelp
will be the King-Beyond-the-Wall.
Your Grace is mistaken. You know nothing, Jon Snow, Ygritte used to say, but he had learned.
The babe is no more a prince than Val is a princess. You do not become King-Beyond-the-Wall because
your father was.
Good, said Stannis, for I will suffer no other kings in Westeros. Have you signed the grant?

No, Your Grace. And now it comes. Jon closed his burned fingers and opened them again. You
ask too much.
Ask? I asked you to be Lord of Winterfell and Warden of the North. I require these castles.
We have ceded you the Nightfort.
Rats and ruins. It is a niggards gift that costs the giver nothing. Your own man Yarwyck says it
will be half a year before the castle can be made fit for habitation.
The other forts are no better.
I know that. It makes no matter. They are all we have. There are nineteen forts along the Wall,
and you have men in only three of them. I mean to have every one of them garrisoned again before the
year is out.
I have no quarrel with that, Sire, but it is being said that you also mean to grant these castles to
your knights and lords, to hold as their own seats as vassals to Your Grace.
Kings are expected to be open-handed to their followers. Did Lord Eddard teach his bastard
nothing? Many of my knights and lords abandoned rich lands and stout castles in the south. Should their
loyalty go unrewarded?
If Your Grace wishes to lose all of my lord fathers bannermen, there is no more certain way
than by giving northern halls to southron lords.
How can I lose men I do not have? I had hoped to bestow Winterfell on a northman, you may
recall. A son of Eddard Stark. He threw my offer in my face. Stannis Baratheon with a grievance was like
a mastiff with a bone; he gnawed it down to splinters.
By right Winterfell should go to my sister Sansa.
Lady Lannister, you mean? Are you so eager to see the Imp perched on your fathers seat? I
promise you, that will not happen whilst I live, Lord Snow.
Jon knew better than to press the point. Sire, some claim that you mean to grant lands and
castles to Rattleshirt and the Magnar of Thenn.
Who told you that?
The talk was all over Castle Black. If you must know, I had the tale from Gilly.
Who is Gilly?
The wet nurse, said Lady Melisandre. Your Grace gave her freedom of the castle.
Not for running tales. Shes wanted for her teats, not for her tongue. Ill have more milk from
her, and fewer messages.

Castle Black needs no useless mouths, Jon agreed. I am sending Gilly south on the next ship
out of Eastwatch.
Melisandre touched the ruby at her neck. Gilly is giving suck to Dallas son as well as her own. It
seems cruel of you to part our little prince from his milk brother, my lord.
Careful now, careful. Mothers milk is all they share. Gillys son is larger and more robust. He
kicks the prince and pinches him, and shoves him from the breast. Craster was his father, a cruel man
and greedy, and blood tells.
The king was confused. I thought the wet nurse was this man Crasters daughter?
Wife and daughter both, Your Grace. Craster married all his daughters. Gillys boy was the fruit
of their union.
Her own father got this child on her? Stannis sounded shocked. We are well rid of her, then. I
will not suffer such abominations here. This is not Kings Landing.
I can find another wet nurse. If theres none amongst the wildlings, I will send to the mountain
clans. Until such time, goats milk should suffice for the boy, if it please Your Grace.
Poor fare for a prince  but better than whores milk, aye. Stannis drummed his fingers on the
map. If we may return to the matter of these forts 
Your Grace, said Jon, with chilly courtesy, I have housed your men and fed them, at dire cost
to our winter stores. I have clothed them so they would not freeze.
Stannis was not appeased. Aye, youve shared your salt pork and porridge, and youve thrown
us some black rags to keep us warm. Rags the wildlings would have taken off your corpses if I had not
come north.
Jon ignored that. I have given you fodder for your horses, and once the stair is done I will lend
you builders to restore the Nightfort. I have even agreed to allow you to settle wildlings on the Gift,
which was given to the Nights Watch in perpetuity.
You offer me empty lands and desolations, yet deny me the castles I require to reward my lords
and bannermen.
The Nights Watch built those castles 
And the Nights Watch abandoned them.
 to defend the Wall, Jon finished stubbornly, not as seats for southron lords. The stones of
those forts are mortared with the blood and bones of my brothers, long dead. I cannot give them to
you.

Cannot or will not? The cords in the kings neck stood out sharp as swords. I offered you a
name.
I have a name, Your Grace.
Snow. Was ever a name more ill-omened? Stannis touched his sword hilt. Just who do you
imagine that you are?
The watcher on the walls. The sword in the darkness.
Dont prate your words at me. Stannis drew the blade he called Lightbringer. Here is your
sword in the darkness. Light rippled up and down the blade, now red, now yellow, now orange,
painting the kings face in harsh, bright hues. Even a green boy should be able to see that. Are you
blind?
No, Sire. I agree these castles must be garrisoned
The boy commander agrees. How fortunate.
by the Nights Watch.
You do not have the men.
Then give me men, Sire. I will provide officers for each of the abandoned forts, seasoned
commanders who know the Wall and the lands beyond, and how best to survive the coming winter. In
return for all weve given you, grant me the men to fill out the garrisons. Men-at-arms, cross-bowmen,
raw boys. I will even take your wounded and infirm.
Stannis stared at him incredulously, then gave a bark of laughter. You are bold enough, Snow, I
grant you that, but youre mad if you think my men will take the black.
They can wear any color cloak they choose, so long as they obey my officers as they would your
own.
The king was unmoved. I have knights and lords in my service, scions of noble Houses old in
honor. They cannot be expected to serve under poachers, peasants, and murderers.
Or bastards, Sire? Your own Hand is a smuggler.
Was a smuggler. I shortened his fingers for that. They tell me that you are the
nine-hundred-ninety-eighth man to command the Nights Watch, Lord Snow. What do you think the
nine-hundred-ninety-ninth might say about these castles? The sight of your head on a spike might
inspire him to be more helpful. The king laid his bright blade down on the map, along the Wall, its steel
shimmering like sunlight on water. You are only lord commander by my sufferance. You would do well
to remember that.

I am lord commander because my brothers chose me. There were mornings when Jon Snow
did not quite believe it himself, when he woke up thinking surely this was some mad dream. Its like
putting on new clothes, Sam had told him. The fit feels strange at first, but once youve worn them for a
while you get to feeling comfortable.
Alliser Thorne complains about the manner of your choosing, and I cannot say he does not
have a grievance. The map lay between them like a battleground, drenched by the colors of the
glowing sword. The count was done by a blind man with your fat friend by his elbow. And Slynt names
you a turncloak.
And who would know one better than Slynt? A turncloak would tell you what you wished to
hear and betray you later. Your Grace knows that I was fairly chosen. My father always said you were a
just man. Just but harsh had been Lord Eddards exact words, but Jon did not think it would be wise to
share that.
Lord Eddard was no friend to me, but he was not without some sense. He would have given me
these castles.
Never. I cannot speak to what my father might have done. I took an oath, Your Grace. The Wall
is mine.
For now. We will see how well you hold it. Stannis pointed at him. Keep your ruins, as they
mean so much to you. I promise you, though, if any remain empty when the year is out, I will take them
with your leave or without it. And if even one should fall to the foe, your head will soon follow. Now get
out.
Lady Melisandre rose from her place near the hearth. With your leave, Sire, I will show Lord
Snow back to his chambers.
Why? He knows the way. Stannis waved them both away. Do what you will. Devan, food.
Boiled eggs and lemon water.
After the warmth of the kings solar, the turnpike stair felt bone-chillingly cold. Winds rising,
mlady, the serjeant warned Melisandre as he handed Jon back his weapons. You might want a
warmer cloak.
I have my faith to warm me. The red woman walked beside Jon down the steps. His Grace is
growing fond of you.
I can tell. He only threatened to behead me twice.
Melisandre laughed. It is his silences you should fear, not his words. As they stepped out into
the yard, the wind filled Jons cloak and sent it flapping against her. The red priestess brushed the black
wool aside and slipped her arm through his. It may be that you are not wrong about the wildling king. I
shall pray for the Lord of Light to send me guidance. When I gaze into the flames, I can see through

stone and earth, and find the truth within mens souls. I can speak to kings long dead and children not
yet born, and watch the years and seasons flicker past, until the end of days.
Are your fires never wrong?
Never  though we priests are mortal and sometimes err, mistaking this must come for this
may come.
Jon could feel her heat, even through his wool and boiled leather. The sight of them arm in arm
was drawing curious looks. They will be whispering in the barracks tonight. If you can truly see the
morrow in your flames, tell me when and where the next wildling attack will come. He slipped his arm
free.
Rhllor sends us what visions he will, but I shall seek for this man Tormund in the flames.
Melisandres red lips curled into a smile. I have seen you in my fires, Jon Snow.
Is that a threat, my lady? Do you mean to burn me too?
You mistake my meaning. She gave him a searching look. I fear that I make you uneasy, Lord
Snow.
Jon did not deny it. The Wall is no place for a woman.
You are wrong. I have dreamed of your Wall, Jon Snow. Great was the lore that raised it, and
great the spells locked beneath its ice. We walk beneath one of the hinges of the world. Melisandre
gazed up at it, her breath a warm moist cloud in the air. This is my place as it is yours, and soon enough
you may have grave need of me. Do not refuse my friendship, Jon. I have seen you in the storm,
hard-pressed, with enemies on every side. You have so many enemies. Shall I tell you their names?
I know their names.
Do not be so certain. The ruby at Melisandres throat gleamed red. It is not the foes who
curse you to your face that you must fear, but those who smile when you are looking and sharpen their
knives when you turn your back. You would do well to keep your wolf close beside you. Ice, I see, and
daggers in the dark. Blood frozen red and hard, and naked steel. It was very cold.
It is always cold on the Wall.
You think so?
I know so, my lady.
Then you know nothing, Jon Snow, she whispered.

BRAN
Are we there yet?
Bran never said the words aloud, but they were often on his lips as their ragged company
trudged through groves of ancient oaks and towering grey-green sentinels, past gloomy soldier pines
and bare brown chestnut trees. Are we near? the boy would wonder, as Hodor clambered up a stony
slope, or descended into some dark crevice where drifts of dirty snow cracked beneath his feet. How
much farther? he would think, as the great elk splashed across a half-frozen stream. How much longer?
Its so cold. Where is the three-eyed crow?
Swaying in his wicker basket on Hodors back, the boy hunched down, ducking his head as the
big stableboy passed beneath the limb of an oak. The snow was falling again, wet and heavy. Hodor
walked with one eye frozen shut, his thick brown beard a tangle of hoarfrost, icicles drooping from the
ends of his bushy mustache. One gloved hand still clutched the rusty iron longsword he had taken from
the crypts below Winterfell, and from time to time he would lash out at a branch, knocking loose a spray
of snow. Hod-d-d-dor, he would mutter, his teeth chattering.
The sound was strangely reassuring. On their journey from Winterfell to the Wall, Bran and his
companions had made the miles shorter by talking and telling tales, but it was different here. Even
Hodor felt it. His hodors came less often than they had south of the Wall. There was a stillness to this
wood like nothing Bran had ever known before. Before the snows began, the north wind would swirl
around them and clouds of dead brown leaves would kick up from the ground with a faint small rustling
sound that reminded him of roaches scurrying in a cupboard, but now all the leaves were buried under a
blanket of white. From time to time a raven would fly overhead, big black wings slapping against the
cold air. Elsewise the world was silent.
Just ahead, the elk wove between the snowdrifts with his head down, his huge rack of antlers
crusted with ice. The ranger sat astride his broad back, grim and silent. Coldhands was the name that the
fat boy Sam had given him, for though the rangers face was pale, his hands were black and hard as iron,
and cold as iron too. The rest of him was wrapped in layers of wool and boiled leather and ringmail, his
features shadowed by his hooded cloak and a black woolen scarf about the lower half of his face.
Behind the ranger, Meera Reed wrapped her arms around her brother, to shelter him from the
wind and cold with the warmth of her own body. A crust of frozen snot had formed below Jojens nose,
and from time to time he shivered violently. He looks so small, Bran thought, as he watched him sway.
He looks smaller than me now, and weaker too, and Im the cripple.
Summer brought up the rear of their little band. The direwolfs breath frosted the forest air as
he padded after them, still limping on the hind leg that had taken the arrow back at Queenscrown. Bran
felt the pain of the old wound whenever he slipped inside the big wolfs skin. Of late Bran wore
Summers body more often than his own; the wolf felt the bite of the cold, despite the thickness of his

fur, but he could see farther and hear better and smell more than the boy in the basket, bundled up like
a babe in swaddling clothes.
Other times, when he was tired of being a wolf, Bran slipped into Hodors skin instead. The
gentle giant would whimper when he felt him, and thrash his shaggy head from side to side, but not as
violently as he had the first time, back at Queenscrown. He knows its me, the boy liked to tell himself.
Hes used to me by now. Even so, he never felt comfortable inside Hodors skin. The big stableboy never
understood what was happening, and Bran could taste the fear at the back of his mouth. It was better
inside Summer. I am him, and he is me. He feels what I feel.
Sometimes Bran could sense the direwolf sniffing after the elk, wondering if he could bring the
great beast down. Summer had grown accustomed to horses at Winterfell, but this was an elk and elk
were prey. The direwolf could sense the warm blood coursing beneath the elks shaggy hide. Just the
smell was enough to make the slaver run from between his jaws, and when it did Brans mouth would
water at the thought of rich, dark meat.
From a nearby oak a raven quorked, and Bran heard the sound of wings as another of the big
black birds flapped down to land beside it. By day only half a dozen ravens stayed with them, flitting
from tree to tree or riding on the antlers of the elk. The rest of the murder flew ahead or lingered
behind. But when the sun sank low they would return, descending from the sky on night-black wings
until every branch of every tree was thick with them for yards around. Some would fly to the ranger and
mutter at him, and it seemed to Bran that he understood their quorks and squawks. They are his eyes
and ears. They scout for him, and whisper to him of dangers ahead and behind.
As now. The elk stopped suddenly, and the ranger vaulted lightly from his back to land in
knee-deep snow. Summer growled at him, his fur bristling. The direwolf did not like the way that
Coldhands smelled. Dead meat, dry blood, a faint whiff of rot. And cold. Cold over all.
What is it? Meera wanted to know.
Behind us, Coldhands announced, his voice muffled by the black wool scarf across his nose
and mouth.
Wolves? Bran asked. They had known for days that they were being followed. Every night they
heard the mournful howling of the pack, and every night the wolves seemed a little closer. Hunters, and
hungry. They can smell how weak we are. Often Bran woke shivering hours before the dawn, listening to
the sound of them calling to one another in the distance as he waited for the sun to rise. If there are
wolves, there must be prey, he used to think, until it came to him that they were the prey.
The ranger shook his head. Men. The wolves still keep their distance. These men are not so
shy.
Meera Reed pushed back her hood. The wet snow that had covered it tumbled to the ground
with a soft thump. How many men? Who are they?

Foes. Ill deal with them.
Ill come with you.
Youll stay. The boy must be protected. There is a lake ahead, hard frozen. When you come on
it, turn north and follow the shoreline. Youll come to a fishing village. Take refuge there until I can catch
up with you.
Bran thought that Meera meant to argue until her brother said, Do as he says. He knows this
land. Jojens eyes were a dark green, the color of moss, but heavy with a weariness that Bran had never
seen in them before. The little grandfather. South of the Wall, the boy from the crannogs had seemed to
be wise beyond his years, but up here he was as lost and frightened as the rest of them. Even so, Meera
always listened to him.
That was still true. Coldhands slipped between the trees, back the way theyd come, with four
ravens flapping after him. Meera watched him go, her cheeks red with cold, breath puffing from her
nostrils. She pulled her hood back up and gave the elk a nudge, and their trek resumed. Before they had
gone twenty yards, though, she turned to glance behind them and said, Men, he says. What men? Does
he mean wildlings? Why wont he say?
He said hed go and deal with them, said Bran.
He said, aye. He said he would take us to this three-eyed crow too. That river we crossed this
morning is the same one we crossed four days ago, I swear. Were going in circles.
Rivers turn and twist, Bran said uncertainly, and where theres lakes and hills, you need to go
around.
Theres been too much going around, Meera insisted, and too many secrets. I dont like it. I
dont like him. And I dont trust him. Those hands of his are bad enough. He hides his face, and will not
speak a name. Who is he? What is he? Anyone can put on a black cloak. Anyone, or any thing. He does
not eat, he never drinks, he does not seem to feel the cold.
Its true. Bran had been afraid to speak of it, but he had noticed. Whenever they took shelter for
the night, while he and Hodor and the Reeds huddled together for warmth, the ranger kept apart.
Sometimes Cold-hands closed his eyes, but Bran did not think he slept. And there was something else 
The scarf. Bran glanced about uneasily, but there was not a raven to be seen. All the big black
birds had left them when the ranger did. No one was listening. Even so, he kept his voice low. The scarf
over his mouth, it never gets all hard with ice, like Hodors beard. Not even when he talks.
Meera gave him a sharp look. Youre right. Weve never seen his breath, have we?
No. A puff of white heralded each of Hodors hodors. When Jojen or his sister spoke, their
words could be seen too. Even the elk left a warm fog upon the air when he exhaled.

If he does not breathe 
Bran found himself remembering the tales Old Nan had told him when he was a babe. Beyond
the Wall the monsters live, the giants and the ghouls, the stalking shadows and the dead that walk, she
would say, tucking him in beneath his scratchy woolen blanket, but they cannot pass so long as the Wall
stands strong and the men of the Nights Watch are true. So go to sleep, my little Brandon, my baby boy,
and dream sweet dreams. There are no monsters here. The ranger wore the black of the Nights Watch,
but what if he was not a man at all? What if he was some monster, taking them to the other monsters to
be devoured?
The ranger saved Sam and the girl from the wights, Bran said, hesitantly, and hes taking me
to the three-eyed crow.
Why wont this three-eyed crow come to us? Why couldnt he meet us at the Wall? Crows have
wings. My brother grows weaker every day. How long can we go on?
Jojen coughed. Until we get there.
They came upon the promised lake not long after, and turned north as the ranger had bid them.
That was the easy part.
The water was frozen, and the snow had been falling for so long that Bran had lost count of the
days, turning the lake into a vast white wilderness. Where the ice was flat and the ground was bumpy,
the going was easy, but where the wind had pushed the snow up into ridges, sometimes it was hard to
tell where the lake ended and the shore began. Even the trees were not as infallible a guide as they
might have hoped, for there were wooded islands in the lake, and wide areas ashore where no trees
grew.
The elk went where he would, regardless of the wishes of Meera and Jojen on his back. Mostly
he stayed beneath the trees, but where the shore curved away westward he would take the more direct
path across the frozen lake, shouldering through snowdrifts taller than Bran as the ice crackled
underneath his hooves. Out there the wind was stronger, a cold north wind that howled across the lake,
knifed through their layers of wool and leather, and set them all to shivering. When it blew into their
faces, it would drive the snow into their eyes and leave them as good as blind.
Hours passed in silence. Ahead, shadows began to steal between the trees, the long fingers of
the dusk. Dark came early this far north. Bran had come to dread that. Each day seemed shorter than
the last, and where the days were cold, the nights were bitter cruel.
Meera halted them again. We should have come on the village by now. Her voice sounded
hushed and strange.
Could we have passed it? Bran asked. I hope not. We need to find shelter before nightfall.

She was not wrong. Jojens lips were blue, Meeras cheeks dark red. Brans own face had gone
numb. Hodors beard was solid ice. Snow caked his legs almost to the knee, and Bran had felt him
stagger more than once. No one was as strong as Hodor, no one. If even his great strength was failing 
Summer can find the village, Bran said suddenly, his words misting in the air. He did not wait
to hear what Meera might say, but closed his eyes and let himself flow from his broken body.
As he slipped inside Summers skin, the dead woods came to sudden life. Where before there
had been silence, now he heard: wind in the trees, Hodors breathing, the elk pawing at the ground in
search of fodder. Familiar scents filled his nostrils: wet leaves and dead grass, the rotted carcass of a
squirrel decaying in the brush, the sour stink of man-sweat, the musky odor of the elk. Food. Meat. The
elk sensed his interest. He turned his head toward the direwolf, wary, and lowered his great antlers.
He is not prey, the boy whispered to the beast who shared his skin. Leave him. Run.
Summer ran. Across the lake he raced, his paws kicking up sprays of snow behind him. The trees
stood shoulder to shoulder, like men in a battle line, all cloaked in white. Over roots and rocks the
direwolf sped, through a drift of old snow, the crust crackling beneath his weight. His paws grew wet
and cold. The next hill was covered with pines, and the sharp scent of their needles filled the air. When
he reached the top, he turned in a circle, sniffing at the air, then raised his head and howled.
The smells were there. Mansmells.
Ashes, Bran thought, old and faint, but ashes. It was the smell of burnt wood, soot, and charcoal.
A dead fire.
He shook the snow off his muzzle. The wind was gusting, so the smells were hard to follow. The
wolf turned this way and that, sniffing. All around were heaps of snow and tall trees garbed in white.
The wolf let his tongue loll out between his teeth, tasting the frigid air, his breath misting as snow-flakes
melted on his tongue. When he trotted toward the scent, Hodor lumbered after him at once. The elk
took longer to decide, so Bran returned reluctantly to his own body and said, That way. Follow
Summer. I smelled it.
As the first sliver of a crescent moon came peeking through the clouds, they finally stumbled
into the village by the lake. They had almost walked straight through it. From the ice, the village looked
no different than a dozen other spots along the lakeshore. Buried under drifts of snow, the round stone
houses could just as easily have been boulders or hillocks or fallen logs, like the deadfall that Jojen had
mistaken for a building the day before, until they dug down into it and found only broken branches and
rotting logs.
The village was empty, abandoned by the wildlings who had once lived there, like all the other
villages they had passed. Some had been burned, as if the inhabitants had wanted to make certain they
could not come creeping back, but this one had been spared the torch. Beneath the snow they found a
dozen huts and a longhall, with its sod roof and thick walls of rough-hewn logs.

At least we will be out of the wind, Bran said.
Hodor, said Hodor.
Meera slid down from the elks back. She and her brother helped lift Bran out of the wicker
basket. Might be the wildlings left some food behind, she said.
That proved a forlorn hope. Inside the longhall they found the ashes of a fire, floors of
hard-packed dirt, a chill that went bone deep. But at least they had a roof above their heads and log
walls to keep the wind off. A stream ran nearby, covered with a film of ice. The elk had to crack it with
his hoof to drink. Once Bran and Jojen and Hodor were safely settled, Meera fetched back some chunks
of broken ice for them to suck on. The melting water was so cold it made Bran shudder.
Summer did not follow them into the longhall. Bran could feel the big wolfs hunger, a shadow
of his own. Go hunt, he told him, but you leave the elk alone. Part of him was wishing he could go
hunting too. Perhaps he would, later.
Supper was a fistful of acorns, crushed and pounded into paste, so bitter that Bran gagged as he
tried to keep it down. Jojen Reed did not even make the attempt. Younger and frailer than his sister, he
was growing weaker by the day.
Jojen, you have to eat, Meera told him. Later. I just want to rest. Jojen smiled a wan smile.
This is not the day I die, sister. I promise you.
You almost fell off the elk.
Almost. I am cold and hungry, thats all.
Then eat.
Crushed acorns? My belly hurts, but that will only make it worse. Leave me be, sister. Im
dreaming of roast chicken.
Dreams will not sustain you. Not even greendreams.
Dreams are what we have.
All we have. The last of the food that they had brought from the south was ten days gone. Since
then hunger walked beside them day and night. Even Summer could find no game in these woods. They
lived on crushed acorns and raw fish. The woods were full of frozen streams and cold black lakes, and
Meera was as good a fisher with her three-pronged frog spear as most men were with hook and line.
Some days her lips were blue with cold by the time she waded back to them with her catch wriggling on
her tines. It had been three days since Meera caught a fish, however. Brans belly felt so hollow it might
have been three years.

After they choked down their meagre supper, Meera sat with her back against a wall,
sharpening her dagger on a whetstone. Hodor squatted down beside the door, rocking back and forth
on his haunches and muttering, Hodor, hodor, hodor.
Bran closed his eyes. It was too cold to talk, and they dare not light a fire. Coldhands had warned
them against that. These woods are not as empty as you think, he had said. You cannot know what the
light might summon from the darkness. The memory made him shiver, despite the warmth of Hodor
beside him.
Sleep would not come, could not come. Instead there was wind, the biting cold, moonlight on
snow, and fire. He was back inside Summer, long leagues away, and the night was rank with the smell of
blood. The scent was strong. A kill, not far. The flesh would still be warm. Slaver ran between his teeth
as the hunger woke inside him. Not elk. Not deer. Not this.
The direwolf moved toward the meat, a gaunt grey shadow sliding from tree to tree, through
pools of moonlight and over mounds of snow. The wind gusted around him, shifting. He lost the scent,
found it, then lost it again. As he searched for it once more, a distant sound made his ears prick up.
Wolf, he knew at once. Summer stalked toward the sound, wary now. Soon enough the scent of
blood was back, but now there were other smells: piss and dead skins, bird shit, feathers, and wolf, wolf,
wolf. A pack. He would need to fight for his meat.
They smelled him too. As he moved out from amongst the darkness of the trees into the bloody
glade, they were watching him. The female was chewing on a leather boot that still had half a leg in it,
but she let it fall at his approach. The leader of the pack, an old male with a grizzled white muzzle and a
blind eye, moved out to meet him, snarling, his teeth bared. Behind him, a younger male showed his
fangs as well.
The direwolfs pale yellow eyes drank in the sights around them. A nest of entrails coiled
through a bush, entangled with the branches. Steam rising from an open belly, rich with the smells of
blood and meat. A head staring sightlessly up at a horned moon, cheeks ripped and torn down to bloody
bone, pits for eyes, neck ending in a ragged stump. A pool of frozen blood, glistening red and black.
Men. The stink of them filled the world. Alive, they had been as many as the fingers on a mans
paw, but now they were none. Dead. Done. Meat. Cloaked and hooded, once, but the wolves had torn
their clothing into pieces in their frenzy to get at the flesh. Those who still had faces wore thick beards
crusted with ice and frozen snot. The falling snow had begun to bury what remained of them, so pale
against the black of ragged cloaks and breeches. Black.
Long leagues away, the boy stirred uneasily.
Black. Nights Watch. They were Nights Watch.
The direwolf did not care. They were meat. He was hungry.

The eyes of the three wolves glowed yellow. The direwolf swung his head from side to side,
nostrils flaring, then bared his fangs in a snarl. The younger male backed away. The direwolf could smell
the fear in him. Tail, he knew. But the one-eyed wolf answered with a growl and moved to block his
advance. Head. And he does not fear me though I am twice his size.
Their eyes met.
Warg!
Then the two rushed together, wolf and direwolf, and there was no more time for thought. The
world shrank down to tooth and claw, snow flying as they rolled and spun and tore at one another, the
other wolves snarling and snapping around them. His jaws closed on matted fur slick with hoarfrost, on
a limb thin as a dry stick, but the one-eyed wolf clawed at his belly and tore himself free, rolled, lunged
for him. Yellow fangs snapped closed on his throat, but he shook off his old grey cousin as he would a
rat, then charged after him, knocked him down. Rolling, ripping, kicking, they fought until the both of
them were ragged and fresh blood dappled the snows around them. But finally the old one-eyed wolf
lay down and showed his belly. The direwolf snapped at him twice more, sniffed at his butt, then lifted a
leg over him.
A few snaps and a warning growl, and the female and the tail submitted too. The pack was his.
The prey as well. He went from man to man, sniffing, before settling on the biggest, a faceless
thing who clutched black iron in one hand. His other hand was missing, severed at the wrist, the stump
bound up in leather. Blood flowed thick and sluggish from the slash across his throat. The wolf lapped at
it with his tongue, licked the ragged eyeless ruin of his nose and cheeks, then buried his muzzle in his
neck and tore it open, gulping down a gobbet of sweet meat. No flesh had ever tasted half as good.
When he was done with that one, he moved to the next, and devoured the choicest bits of that
man too. Ravens watched him from the trees, squatting dark-eyed and silent on the branches as snow
drifted down around them. The other wolves made do with his leavings; the old male fed first, then the
female, then the tail. They were his now. They were pack.
No, the boy whispered, we have another pack. Ladys dead and maybe Grey Wind too, but
somewhere theres still Shaggydog and Nymeria and Ghost. Remember Ghost?
Falling snow and feasting wolves began to dim. Warmth beat against his face, comforting as a
mothers kisses. Fire, he thought, smoke. His nose twitched to the smell of roasting meat. And then the
forest fell away, and he was back in the longhall again, back in his broken body, staring at a fire. Meera
Reed was turning a chunk of raw red flesh above the flames, letting it char and spit. Just in time, she
said. Bran rubbed his eyes with the heel of his hand and wriggled backwards against the wall to sit. You
almost slept through supper. The ranger found a sow.
Behind her, Hodor was tearing eagerly at a chunk of hot charred flesh as blood and grease ran
down into his beard. Wisps of smoke rose from between his fingers. Hodor, he muttered between

bites, hodor, hodor. His sword lay on the earthen floor beside him. Jojen Reed nipped at his own joint
with small bites, chewing each chunk of meat a dozen times before swallowing.
The ranger killed a pig. Coldhands stood beside the door, a raven on his arm, both staring at the
fire. Reflections from the flames glittered off four black eyes. He does not eat, Bran remembered, and he
fears the flames.
You said no fire, he reminded the ranger. The walls around us hide the light, and dawn is
close. We will be on our way soon.
What happened to the men? The foes behind us?
They will not trouble you.
Who were they? Wildlings?
Meera turned the meat to cook the other side. Hodor was chewing and swallowing, muttering
happily under his breath. Only Jojen seemed aware of what was happening as Coldhands turned his
head to stare at Bran. They were foes.
Men of the Nights Watch. You killed them. You and the ravens. Their faces were all torn, and
their eyes were gone. Coldhands did not deny it. They were your brothers. I saw. The wolves had
ripped their clothes up, but I could still tell. Their cloaks were black. Like your hands. Cold-hands said
nothing. Who are you? Why are your hands black?
The ranger studied his hands as if he had never noticed them before. Once the heart has
ceased to beat, a mans blood runs down into his extremities, where it thickens and congeals. His voice
rattled in his throat, as thin and gaunt as he was. His hands and feet swell up and turn as black as
pudding. The rest of him becomes as white as milk.
Meera Reed rose, her frog spear in her hand, a chunk of smoking meat still impaled upon its
tines. Show us your face.
The ranger made no move to obey.
Hes dead. Bran could taste the bile in his throat. Meera, hes some dead thing. The monsters
cannot pass so long as the Wall stands and the men of the Nights Watch stay true, thats what Old Nan
used to say. He came to meet us at the Wall, but he could not pass. He sent Sam instead, with that
wildling girl.
Meeras gloved hand tightened around the shaft of her frog spear. Who sent you? Who is this
three-eyed crow?
A friend. Dreamer, wizard, call him what you will. The last green-seer. The longhalls wooden
door banged open. Outside, the night wind howled, bleak and black. The trees were full of ravens,
screaming. Cold-hands did not move.

A monster, Bran said.
The ranger looked at Bran as if the rest of them did not exist. Your monster, Brandon Stark.
Yours, the raven echoed, from his shoulder. Outside the door, the ravens in the trees took up
the cry, until the night wood echoed to the murderers song of Yours, yours, yours.
Jojen, did you dream this? Meera asked her brother. Who is he? What is he? What do we do
now?
We go with the ranger, said Jojen. We have come too far to turn back now, Meera. We would
never make it back to the Wall alive. We go with Brans monster, or we die.
TYRION
They departed Pentos by the Sunrise Gate, though Tyrion Lannister never glimpsed the sunrise.
It will be as if you had never come to Pentos, my little friend, promised Magister Illyrio, as he drew
shut the litters purple velvet drapes. No man must see you leave the city, as no man saw you enter.
No man except the sailors who stuffed me in that barrel, the cabin boy who cleaned up after
me, the girl you sent to warm my bed, and that treacherous freckled washerwoman. Oh, and your
guards. Unless you removed their wits along with their balls, they know youre not alone in here. The
litter was suspended between eight mammoth draft horses on heavy leather straps. Four eunuchs paced
beside the horses, two to either side, and more were trudging along behind to guard the baggage train.
Unsullied tell no tales, Illyrio assured him. And the galley that delivered you is on her way to
Asshai even now. It will be two years before she returns, if the seas are kind. As for my household, they
love me well. None would betray me.
Cherish that thought, my fat friend. One day we will carve those words upon your crypt. We
should be aboard that galley, the dwarf said. The fastest way to Volantis is by sea.
The sea is hazardous, replied Illyrio. Autumn is a season rife with storms, and pirates still
make their dens upon the Stepstones and venture forth to prey on honest men. It would never do for
my little friend to fall into such hands.
There are pirates on the Rhoyne as well.
River pirates. The cheesemonger gave a yawn, covering his mouth with the back of his hand.
Cockroach captains scurrying after crumbs.
One hears talk of stone men as well.

They are real enough, poor damned things. But why speak of such things? The day is too fine
for such talk. We shall see the Rhoyne soon, and there you shall be rid of Illyrio and his big belly. Till
then, let us drink and dream. We have sweet wine and savories to enjoy. Why dwell upon disease and
death?
Why indeed? Tyrion heard the thrum of a crossbow once again, and wondered. The litter
swayed side to side, a soothing movement that made him feel as if he were a child being rocked to sleep
in his mothers arms. Not that I would know what that was like. Silk pillows stuffed with goose down
cushioned his cheeks. The purple velvet walls curved overhead to form a roof, making it pleasantly
warm within despite the autumn chill outside.
A train of mules trailed behind them, carrying chests and casks and barrels, and hampers of
delectables to keep the lord of cheese from growing peckish. They nibbled on spiced sausage that
morning, washed down with a dark smokeberry brown. Jellied eels and Dornish reds filled their
afternoon. Come evening there were sliced hams, boiled eggs, and roasted larks stuffed with garlic and
onions, with pale ales and Myrish fire wines to help in their digestion. The litter was as slow as it was
comfortable, however, and the dwarf soon found himself itching with impatience.
How many days until we reach the river? he asked Illyrio that evening. At this pace, your
queens dragons will be larger than Aegons three before I can lay eyes upon them.
Would it were so. A large dragon is more fearsome than a small one. The magister shrugged.
Much as it would please me to welcome Queen Daenerys to Volantis, I must rely on you and Griff for
that. I can serve her best in Pentos, smoothing the way for her return. So long as I am with you, though
 well, an old fat man must have his comforts, yes? Come, drink a cup of wine.
Tell me, Tyrion said as he drank, why should a magister of Pentos give three figs who wears
the crown in Westeros? Where is the gain for you in this venture, my lord?
The fat man dabbed grease from his lips. I am an old man, grown weary of this world and its
treacheries. Is it so strange that I should wish to do some good before my days are done, to help a sweet
young girl regain her birthright?
Next you will be offering me a suit of magic armor and a palace in Valyria. If Daenerys is no
more than a sweet young girl, the Iron Throne will cut her into sweet young pieces.
Fear not, my little friend. The blood of Aegon the Dragon flows in her veins.
Along with the blood of Aegon the Unworthy, Maegor the Cruel, and Baelor the Befuddled. Tell
me more of her.
The fat man grew pensive. Daenerys was half a child when she came to me, yet fairer even
than my second wife, so lovely I was tempted to claim her for myself. Such a fearful, furtive thing,
however, I knew I should get no joy from coupling with her. Instead I summoned a bed-warmer and

fucked her vigorously until the madness passed. If truth be told, I did not think Daenerys would survive
for long amongst the horselords.
That did not stop you selling her to Khal Drogo 
Dothraki neither buy nor sell. Say rather that her brother Viserys gave her to Drogo to win the
khals friendship. A vain young man, and greedy. Viserys lusted for his fathers throne, but he lusted for
Daenerys too, and was loath to give her up. The night before the princess wed he tried to steal into her
bed, insisting that if he could not have her hand, he would claim her maidenhead. Had I not taken the
precaution of posting guards upon her door, Viserys might have undone years of planning.
He sounds an utter fool.
Viserys was Mad Aeryss son, just so. Daenerys  Daenerys is quite different. He popped a
roasted lark into his mouth and crunched it noisily, bones and all. The frightened child who sheltered in
my manse died on the Dothraki sea, and was reborn in blood and fire. This dragon queen who wears her
name is a true Targaryen. When I sent ships to bring her home, she turned toward Slavers Bay. In a
short span of days she conquered Astapor, made Yunkai bend the knee, and sacked Meereen. Mantarys
will be next, if she marches west along the old Valyrian roads. If she comes by sea, well  her fleet must
take on food and water at Volantis.
By land or by sea, there are long leagues between Meereen and Volantis, Tyrion observed.
Five hundred fifty, as the dragon flies, through deserts, mountains, swamps, and
demon-haunted ruins. Many and more will perish, but those who survive will be stronger by the time
they reach Volantis  where they shall find you and Griff awaiting them, with fresh forces and sufficient
ships to carry them all across the sea to Westeros.
Tyrion pondered all he knew of Volantis, oldest and proudest of the Nine Free Cities. Something
was awry here. Even with half a nose, he could smell it. Its said there are five slaves for every free man
in Volantis. Why would the triarchs assist a queen who smashed the slave trade? He pointed at Illyrio.
For that matter, why would you? Slavery may be forbidden by the laws of Pentos, yet you have a finger
in that trade as well, and maybe a whole hand. And yet you conspire for the dragon queen, and not
against her. Why? What do you hope to gain from Queen Daenerys?
Are we back to that again? You are a persistent little man. Illyrio gave a laugh and slapped his
belly. As you will. The Beggar King swore that I should be his master of coin, and a lordly lord as well.
Once he wore his golden crown, I should have my choice of castles  even Casterly Rock, if I desired.
Tyrion snorted wine back up the scarred stump that had been his nose. My father would have
loved to hear that.
Your lord father had no cause for concern. Why would I want a rock? My manse is large enough
for any man, and more comfortable than your drafty Westerosi castles. Master of coin, though  The

fat man peeled another egg. I am fond of coins. Is there any sound as sweet as the clink of gold on
gold?
A sisters screams. Are you quite certain that Daenerys will make good her brothers
promises?
She will, or she will not. Illyrio bit the egg in half. I told you, my little friend, not all that a man
does is done for gain. Believe as you wish, but even fat old fools like me have friends, and debts of
affection to repay.
Liar, thought Tyrion. There is something in this venture worth more to you than coin or castles.
You meet so few men who value friendship over gold these days.
Too true, the fat man said, deaf to the irony. How is it that the Spider became so dear to
you?
We were young together, two green boys in Pentos.
Varys came from Myr.
So he did. I met him not long after he arrived, one step ahead of the slavers. By day he slept in
the sewers, by night he prowled the rooftops like a cat. I was near as poor, a bravo in soiled silks, living
by my blade. Perhaps you chanced to glimpse the statue by my pool? Pytho Malanon carved that when I
was six-and-ten. A lovely thing, though now I weep to see it.
Age makes ruins of us all. I am still in mourning for my nose. But Varys 
In Myr he was a prince of thieves, until a rival thief informed on him. In Pentos his accent
marked him, and once he was known for a eunuch he was despised and beaten. Why he chose me to
protect him I may never know, but we came to an arrangement. Varys spied on lesser thieves and took
their takings. I offered my help to their victims, promising to recover their valuables for a fee. Soon
every man who had suffered a loss knew to come to me, whilst citys footpads and cutpurses sought out
Varys  half to slit his throat, the other half to sell him what theyd stolen. We both grew rich, and richer
still when Varys trained his mice.
In Kings Landing he kept little birds.
Mice, we called them then. The older thieves were fools who thought no further than turning a
nights plunder into wine. Varys preferred orphan boys and young girls. He chose the smallest, the ones
who were quick and quiet, and taught them to climb walls and slip down chimneys. He taught them to
read as well. We left the gold and gems for common thieves. Instead our mice stole letters, ledgers,
charts  later, they would read them and leave them where they lay. Secrets are worth more than silver
or sapphires, Varys claimed. Just so. I grew so respectable that a cousin of the Prince of Pentos let me
wed his maiden daughter, whilst whispers of a certain eunuchs talents crossed the narrow sea and
reached the ears of a certain king. A very anxious king, who did not wholly trust his son, nor his wife, nor

his Hand, a friend of his youth who had grown arrogant and overproud. I do believe that you know the
rest of this tale, is that not so?
Much of it, Tyrion admitted. I see that you are somewhat more than a cheesemonger after
all.
Illyrio inclined his head. You are kind to say so, my little friend. And for my part, I see that you
are just as quick as Lord Varys claimed. He smiled, showing all his crooked yellow teeth, and shouted
for another jar of Myrish fire wine.
When the magister drifted off to sleep with the wine jar at his elbow, Tyrion crept across the
pillows to work it loose from its fleshy prison and pour himself a cup. He drained it down, and yawned,
and filled it once again. If I drink enough fire wine, he told himself, perhaps Ill dream of dragons.
When he was still a lonely child in the depths of Casterly Rock, he oft rode dragons through the
nights, pretending he was some lost Targaryen princeling, or a Valyrian dragonlord soaring high oer
fields and mountains. Once, when his uncles asked him what gift he wanted for his name-day, he
begged them for a dragon. It wouldnt need to be a big one. It could be little, like I am. His uncle
Gerion thought that was the funniest thing he had ever heard, but his uncle Tygett said, The last dragon
died a century ago, lad. That had seemed so monstrously unfair that the boy had cried himself to sleep
that night.
Yet if the lord of cheese could be believed, the Mad Kings daughter had hatched three living
dragons. Two more than even a Targaryen should require. Tyrion was almost sorry that he had killed his
father. He would have enjoyed seeing Lord Tywins face when he learned that there was a Targaryen
queen on her way to Westeros with three dragons, backed by a scheming eunuch and a cheesemonger
half the size of Casterly Rock.
The dwarf was so stuffed that he had to undo his belt and the topmost laces on his breeches.
The boys clothes his host had dressed him in made him feel like ten pounds of sausage in a five-pound
skin. If we eat this way every day I will be the size of Illyrio before I meet this dragon queen. Out-side the
litter night had fallen. Inside all was dark. Tyrion listened to Illyrios snores, the creak of the leather
straps, the slow clop clop of the teams ironshod hooves on the hard Valyrian road, but his heart was
listening for the beat of leathern wings.
When he woke, dawn had come. The horses plodded on, the litter creaking and swaying
between them. Tyrion pulled the curtain back an inch to peer outside, but there was little to see but
ochre fields, bare brown elms, and the road itself, a broad stone highway that ran straight as a spear to
the horizon. He had read about Valyrian roads, but this was the first he had seen. The Freeholds grasp
had reached as far as Dragonstone, but never to the mainland of Westeros itself. Odd, that.
Dragonstone is no more than a rock. The wealth was farther west, but they had dragons. Surely they
knew that it was there.

He had drunk too much last night. His head was pounding, and even the gentle swaying of the
litter was enough to make his gorge rise in his throat. Though he said no word of complaint, his distress
must have been plain to Illyrio Mopatis. Come, drink with me, the fat man said. A scale from the
dragon that burned you, as they say. He poured for them from a flagon of blackberry wine so sweet
that it drew more flies than honey. Tyrion shooed them off with the back of his hand and drank deep.
The taste was so cloying that it was all he could do to keep it down. The second cup went down easier,
however. Even so, he had no appetite, and when Illyrio offered him a bowl of blackberries in cream he
waved it off. I dreamed about the queen, he said. I was on my knees before her, swearing my
allegiance, but she mistook me for my brother, Jaime, and fed me to her dragons.
Let us hope this dream was not prophetic. You are a clever imp, just as Varys said, and
Daenerys will have need of clever men about her. Ser Barristan is a valiant knight and true; but none, I
think, has ever called him cunning.
Knights know only one way to solve a problem. They couch their lances and charge. A dwarf
has a different way of looking at the world. What of you, though? You are a clever man yourself.
You flatter me. Illyrio waggled his hand. Alas, I am not made for travel, so I will send you to
Daenerys in my stead. You did Her Grace a great service when you slew your father, and it is my hope
that you will do her many more. Daenerys is not the fool her brother was. She will make good use of
you.
As kindling? Tyrion thought, smiling pleasantly.
They changed out teams only thrice that day but seemed to halt twice an hour at the least so
Illyrio could climb down from the litter and have himself a piss. Our lord of cheese is the size of an
elephant, but he has a bladder like a peanut, the dwarf mused. During one stop, he used the time to
have a closer look at the road. Tyrion knew what he would find: not packed earth, nor bricks, nor
cobbles, but a ribbon of fused stone raised a half foot above the ground to allow rainfall and snowmelt
to run off its shoulders. Unlike the muddy tracks that passed for roads in the Seven Kingdoms, the
Valyrian roads were wide enough for three wagons to pass abreast, and neither time nor traffic marred
them. They still endured, unchanging, four centuries after Valyria itself had met its Doom. He looked for
ruts and cracks but found only a pile of warm dung deposited by one of the horses.
The dung made him think of his lord father. Are you down in some hell, Father? A nice cold hell
where you can look up and see me help restore Mad Aeryss daughter to the Iron Throne?
As they resumed their journey, Illyrio produced a bag of roasted chestnuts and began to speak
once more of the dragon queen. Our last news of Queen Daenerys is old and stale, I fear. By now she
will have left Meereen, we must assume. She has her host at last, a ragged host of sellswords, Dothraki
horselords, and Unsullied infantry, and she will no doubt lead them west, to take back her fathers
throne. Magister Illyrio twisted open a pot of garlic snails, sniffed at them, and smiled. At Volantis, you
will have fresh tidings of Daenerys, we must hope, he said, as he sucked one from its shell. Dragons

and young girls are both capricious, and it may be that you will need to adjust your plans. Griff will know
what to do. Will you have a snail? The garlic is from my own gardens.
I could ride a snail and make a better pace than this litter of yours. Tyrion waved the dish away.
You place a deal of trust in this man Griff. Another friend of your childhood?
No. A sellsword, you would call him, but Westerosi born. Daenerys needs men worthy of her
cause. Illyrio raised a hand. I know! Sellswords put gold before honor, you are thinking. This man
Griff will sell me to my sister. Not so. I trust Griff as I would trust a brother.
Another mortal error. Then I shall do likewise.
The Golden Company marches toward Volantis as we speak, there to await the coming of our
queen out of the east.
Beneath the gold, the bitter steel. I had heard the Golden Company was under contract with
one of the Free Cities.
Myr. Illyrio smirked. Contracts can be broken.
There is more coin in cheese than I knew, said Tyrion. How did you accomplish that?
The magister waggled his fat fingers. Some contracts are writ in ink, and some in blood. I say no
more.
The dwarf pondered that. The Golden Company was reputedly the finest of the free companies,
founded a century ago by Bittersteel, a bastard son of Aegon the Unworthy. When another of Aegons
Great Bastards tried to seize the Iron Throne from his trueborn half-brother, Bittersteel joined the
revolt. Daemon Blackfyre had perished on the Redgrass Field, however, and his rebellion with him.
Those followers of the Black Dragon who survived the battle yet refused to bend the knee fled across
the narrow sea, among them Daemons younger sons, Bittersteel, and hundreds of landless lords and
knights who soon found themselves forced to sell their swords to eat. Some joined the Ragged Standard,
some the Second Sons or Maidens Men. Bittersteel saw the strength of House Blackfyre scattering to
the four winds, so he formed the Golden Company to bind the exiles together.
From that day to this, the men of the Golden Company had lived and died in the Disputed Lands,
fighting for Myr or Lys or Tyrosh in their pointless little wars, and dreaming of the land their fathers had
lost. They were exiles and sons of exiles, dispossessed and unforgiven  yet formidable fighters still.
I admire your powers of persuasion, Tyrion told Illyrio. How did you convince the Golden
Company to take up the cause of our sweet queen when they have spent so much of their history
fighting against the Targaryens?
Illyrio brushed away the objection as if it were a fly. Black or red, a dragon is still a dragon.
When Maelys the Monstrous died upon the Stepstones, it was the end of the male line of House

Blackfyre. The cheesemonger smiled through his forked beard. And Daenerys will give the exiles what
Bittersteel and the Blackfyres never could. She will take them home.
With fire and sword. It was the kind of homecoming that Tyrion wished for as well. Ten
thousand swords makes for a princely gift, I grant you. Her Grace should be most pleased.
The magister gave a modest bob of his head, chins jiggling. I would never presume to say what
might please Her Grace.
Prudent of you. Tyrion knew much and more about the gratitude of kings. Why should queens
be any different?
Soon enough the magister was fast asleep, leaving Tyrion to brood alone. He wondered what
Barristan Selmy would think of riding into battle with the Golden Company. During the War of the
Ninepenny Kings, Selmy had cut a bloody path through their ranks to slay the last of the Blackfyre
Pretenders. Rebellion makes for queer bedfellows. And none more queer than this fat man and me.
The cheesemonger woke when they stopped to change the horses and sent for a fresh hamper.
How far have we come? the dwarf asked him as they stuffed themselves with cold capon and a relish
made of carrots, raisins, and bits of lime and orange.
This is Andalos, my friend. The land your Andals came from. They took it from the hairy men
who were here before them, cousins to the hairy men of Ib. The heart of Hugors ancient realm lies
north of us, but we are passing through its southern marches. In Pentos, these are called the Flatlands.
Farther east stand the Velvet Hills, whence we are bound.
Andalos. The Faith taught that the Seven themselves had once walked the hills of Andalos in
human form. The Father reached his hand into the heavens and pulled down seven stars, Tyrion
recited from memory, and one by one he set them on the brow of Hugor of the Hill to make a glowing
crown.
Magister Illyrio gave him a curious look. I did not dream my little friend was so devout.
The dwarf shrugged. A relic of my boyhood. I knew I would not make a knight, so I decided to
be High Septon. That crystal crown adds a foot to a mans height. I studied the holy books and prayed
until I had scabs on both my knees, but my quest came to a tragic end. I reached that certain age and fell
in love.
A maiden? I know the way of that. Illyrio thrust his right hand up his left sleeve and drew out a
silver locket. Inside was a painted likeness of a woman with big blue eyes and pale golden hair streaked
by silver. Serra. I found her in a Lysene pillow house and brought her home to warm my bed, but in the
end I wed her. Me, whose first wife had been a cousin of the Prince of Pentos. The palace gates were
closed to me thereafter, but I did not care. The price was small enough, for Serra.

How did she die? Tyrion knew that she was dead; no man spoke so fondly of a woman who
had abandoned him.
A Braavosi trading galley called at Pentos on her way back from the Jade Sea. The Treasure
carried cloves and saffron, jet and jade, scarlet samite, green silk  and the grey death. We slew her
oarsmen as they came ashore and burned the ship at anchor, but the rats crept down the oars and
paddled to the quay on cold stone feet. The plague took two thousand before it ran its course.
Magister Illyrio closed the locket. I keep her hands in my bedchamber. Her hands that were so soft 
Tyrion thought of Tysha. He glanced out at the fields where once the gods had walked. What
sort of gods make rats and plagues and dwarfs? Another passage from The Seven-Pointed Star came
back to him. The Maid brought him forth a girl as supple as a willow with eyes like deep blue pools, and
Hugor declared that he would have her for his bride. So the Mother made her fertile, and the Crone
foretold that she would bear the king four-and-forty mighty sons. The Warrior gave strength to their
arms, whilst the Smith wrought for each a suit of iron plates.
Your Smith must have been Rhoynish, Illyrio quipped. The Andals learned the art of working
iron from the Rhoynar who dwelt along the river. This is known.
Not by our septons. Tyrion gestured at the fields. Who dwells in these Flatlands of yours?
Tillers and toilers, bound to the land. There are orchards, farms, mines  I own some such
myself, though I seldom visit them. Why should I spend my days out here, with the myriad delights of
Pentos close at hand?
Myriad delights. And huge thick walls. Tyrion swirled his wine in his cup. We have seen no
towns since Pentos.
There are ruins. Illyrio waved a chicken leg toward the curtains. The horselords come this
way, whenever some khal takes it into his head to gaze upon the sea. The Dothraki are not fond of
towns, you will know this even in Westeros.
Fall upon one of these khalasars and destroy it, and you may find that the Dothraki are not so
quick to cross the Rhoyne.
It is cheaper to buy off foes with food and gifts.
If only I had thought to bring a nice cheese to the battle on the Blackwater, I might still have all
my nose. Lord Tywin had always held the Free Cities in contempt. They fight with coins instead of
swords, he used to say. Gold has its uses, but wars are won with iron. Give gold to a foe and he will just
come back for more, my father always said.
Is this the selfsame father that you murdered? Illyrio tossed his chicken bone from the litter.
Sellswords will not stand against Dothraki screamers. That was proved at Qohor.

Not even your brave Griff? mocked Tyrion. Griff is different. He has a son he dotes on. Young
Griff, the boy is called. There never was a nobler lad.
The wine, the food, the sun, the sway of the litter, the buzzing of the flies, all conspired to make
Tyrion sleepy. So he slept, woke, drank. Illyrio matched him cup for cup. And as the sky turned a dusky
purple, the fat man began to snore.
That night Tyrion Lannister dreamed of a battle that turned the hills of Westeros as red as blood.
He was in the midst of it, dealing death with an axe as big as he was, fighting side by side with Barristan
the Bold and Bittersteel as dragons wheeled across the sky above them. In the dream he had two heads,
both noseless. His father led the enemy, so he slew him once again. Then he killed his brother, Jaime,
hacking at his face until it was a red ruin, laughing every time he struck a blow. Only when the fight was
finished did he realize that his second head was weeping.
When he woke his stunted legs were stiff as iron. Illyrio was eating olives. Where are we?
Tyrion asked him.
We have not yet left the Flatlands, my hasty friend. Soon our road shall pass into the Velvet
Hills. There we begin our climb toward Ghoyan Drohe, upon the Little Rhoyne.
Ghoyan Drohe had been a Rhoynar city, until the dragons of Valyria had reduced it to a
smoldering desolation. I am traveling through years as well as leagues, Tyrion reflected, back through
history to the days when dragons ruled the earth.
Tyrion slept and woke and slept again, and day and night seemed not to matter. The Velvet Hills
proved a disappointment. Half the whores in Lannisport have breasts bigger than these hills, he told
Illyrio. You ought to call them the Velvet Teats. They saw a circle of standing stones that Illyrio claimed
had been raised by giants, and later a deep lake. Here lived a den of robbers who preyed on all who
passed this way, Illyrio said. It is said they still dwell beneath the water. Those who fish the lake are
pulled under and devoured. The next evening they came upon a huge Valyrian sphinx crouched beside
the road. It had a dragons body and a womans face.
A dragon queen, said Tyrion. A pleasant omen.
Her king is missing. Illyrio pointed out the smooth stone plinth on which the second sphinx
once stood, now grown over with moss and flowering vines. The horselords built wooden wheels
beneath him and dragged him back to Vaes Dothrak.
That is an omen too, thought Tyrion, but not as hopeful. That night, drunker than usual, he
broke into sudden song.
He rode through the streets of the city, down from his hill on high,
Oer the wynds and the steps and the cobbles, he rode to a womans sigh.
For she was his secret treasure, she was his shame and his bliss.

And a chain and a keep are nothing, compared to a womans kiss.
Those were all the words he knew, aside from the refrain. Hands of gold are always cold, but a
womans hands are warm. Shaes hands had beat at him as the golden hands dug into her throat. He did
not remember if theyd been warm or not. As the strength went out of her, her blows became moths
fluttering about his face. Each time he gave the chain another twist the golden hands dug deeper. A
chain and a keep are nothing, compared to a womans kiss. Had he kissed her one last time, after she
was dead? He could not remember  though he still recalled the first time they had kissed, in his tent
beside the Green Fork. How sweet her mouth had tasted.
He remembered the first time with Tysha as well. She did not know how, no more than I did. We
kept bumping our noses, but when I touched her tongue with mine she trembled. Tyrion closed his eyes
to bring her face to mind, but instead he saw his father, squatting on a privy with his bed-robe hiked up
about his waist. Wherever whores go, Lord Tywin said, and the crossbow thrummed.
The dwarf rolled over, pressing half a nose deep into the silken pillows. Sleep opened beneath
him like a well, and he threw himself into it with a will and let the darkness eat him up.
THE MERCHANTS MAN
Adventure stank.
She boasted sixty oars, a single sail, and a long lean hull that promised speed. Small, but she
might serve, Quentyn thought when he saw her, but that was before he went aboard and got a good
whiff of her. Pigs, was his first thought, but after a second sniff he changed his mind. Pigs had a cleaner
smell. This stink was piss and rotting meat and night-soil, this was the reek of corpse flesh and weeping
sores and wounds gone bad, so strong that it overwhelmed the salt air and fish smell of the harbor.
I want to retch, he said to Gerris Drinkwater. They were waiting for the ships master to
appear, sweltering in the heat as the stench wafted up from the deck beneath them.
If the captain smells anything like his ship, he may mistake your vomit for perfume, Gerris
replied.
Quentyn was about to suggest that they try another ship when the master finally made his
appearance, with two vile-looking crewmen at his side. Gerris greeted him with a smile. Though he did
not speak the Volantene tongue as well as Quentyn, their ruse required that he speak for them. Back in
the Planky Town Quentyn had played the wineseller, but the mummery had chafed at him, so when the
Dornishmen changed ships at Lys they had changed roles as well. Aboard the Meadowlark, Cletus
Yronwood became the merchant, Quentyn the servant; in Volantis, with Cletus slain, Gerris had
assumed the masters role.

Tall and fair, with blue-green eyes, sandy hair streaked by the sun, and a lean and comely body,
Gerris Drinkwater had a swagger to him, a confidence bordering on arrogance. He never seemed ill at
ease, and even when he did not speak the language, he had ways of making himself understood.
Quentyn cut a poor figure by comparison short-legged and stocky, thickly built, with hair the brown of
new-turned earth. His forehead was too high, his jaw too square, his nose too broad. A good honest
face, a girl had called it once, but you should smile more.
Smiles had never come easily for Quentyn Martell, any more than they did for his lord father.
How swift is your Adventure? Gerris said, in a halting approximation of High Valyrian.
The Adventures master recognized the accent and responded in the Common Tongue of
Westeros. There is none swifter, honored lord. Adventure can run down the wind itself. Tell me where
you wish to sail, and swiftly I shall bring you there.
I seek passage to Meereen for myself and two servants.
That gave the captain pause. I am no stranger to Meereen. I could find the city again, aye  but
why? There are no slaves to be had in Meereen, no profit to be found there. The silver queen has put an
end to that. She has even closed the fighting pits, so a poor sailor cannot even amuse himself as he waits
to fill his holds. Tell me, my Westerosi friend, what is there in Meereen that you should want to go
there?
The most beautiful woman in the world, thought Quentyn. My bride-to-be, if the gods are good.
Sometimes at night he lay awake imagining her face and form, and wondering why such a woman would
ever want to marry him, of all the princes in the world. I am Dorne, he told himself. She will want Dorne.
Gerris answered with the tale they had concocted. Wine is our family trade. My father owns
extensive vineyards back in Dorne, and wishes me to find new markets. It is hoped that the good folk of
Meereen will welcome what I sell.
Wine? Dornish wine? The captain was not convinced. The slave cities are at war. Can it be
you do not know this?
The fighting is between Yunkai and Astapor, we had heard. Meereen is not involved.
Not as yet. But soon. An envoy from the Yellow City is in Volantis even now, hiring swords. The
Long Lances have already taken ship for Yunkai, and the Windblown and the Company of the Cat will
follow once they have finished filling out their ranks. The Golden Company marches east as well. All this
is known.
If you say so. I deal in wine, not wars. Ghiscari wine is poor stuff, all agree. The Meereenese will
pay a good price for my fine Dornish vintages.
Dead men do not care what kind of wine they drink. The master of Adventure fingered his
beard. I am not the first captain you have approached, I think. Nor the tenth.

No, Gerris admitted.
How many, then? A hundred?
Close enough, thought Quentyn. The Volantenes were fond of boasting that the hundred isles of
Braavos could be dropped into their deep harbor and drowned. Quentyn had never seen Braavos, but he
could believe it. Rich and ripe and rotted, Volantis covered the mouth of the Rhoyne like a warm wet
kiss, stretching across hill and marsh on both sides of the river. Ships were everywhere, coming down
the river or headed out to sea, crowding the wharves and piers, taking on cargo or off-loading it:
warships and whalers and trading galleys, carracks and skiffs, cogs, great cogs, long-ships, swan ships,
ships from Lys and Tyrosh and Pentos, Qartheen spicers big as palaces, ships from Tolos and Yunkai and
the Basilisks. So many that Quentyn, seeing the port for the first time from the deck of the Meadowlark,
had told his friends that they would only linger here three days.
Yet twenty days had passed, and here they remained, still shipless. The captains of the
Melantine, the Triarchs Daughter, and the Mermaids Kiss had all refused them. A mate on the Bold
Voyager had laughed in their faces. The master of the Dolphin berated them for wasting his time, and
the owner of the Seventh Son accused them of being pirates. All on the first day.
Only the captain of the Fawn had given them reasons for his refusal. It is true that I am sailing
east, he told them, over watered wine. South around Valyria and thence into the sunrise. We will take
on water and provisions at New Ghis, then bend all oars toward Qarth and the Jade Gates. Every voyage
has perils, long ones more than most. Why should I seek out more danger by turning into Slavers Bay?
The Fawn is my livelihood. I will not risk her to take three mad Dornishmen into the middle of a war.
Quentyn had begun to think that they might have done better to buy their own ship in the
Planky Town. That would have drawn unwanted attention, however. The Spider had informers
everywhere, even in the halls of Sunspear. Dorne will bleed if your purpose is discovered, his father
had warned him, as they watched the children frolic in the pools and fountains of the Water Gardens.
What we do is treason, make no mistake. Trust only your companions, and do your best to avoid
attracting notice.
So Gerris Drinkwater gave the captain of Adventure his most disarming smile. Truth be told, I
have not kept count of all the cowards who refused us, but at the Merchants House I heard it said that
you were a bolder sort of man, the sort who might risk anything for sufficient gold.
A smuggler, Quentyn thought. That was how the other traders styled Adventures master, back
at the Merchants House. He is a smuggler and a slaver, half pirate and half pander, but it may be that
he is your best hope, the innkeep had told them.
The captain rubbed thumb and forefinger together. And how much gold would you deem
sufficient for such a voyage?
Thrice your usual fee for passage to Slavers Bay.

For each of you? The captain showed his teeth in something that might have been intended as
a smile though it gave his narrow face a feral look. Perhaps. It is true, I am a bolder man than most.
How soon will you wish to leave?
The morrow would not be too soon.
Done. Return an hour before first light, with your friends and your wines. Best to be under way
whilst Volantis sleeps, so no one will ask us inconvenient questions about our destination.
As you say. An hour before first light.
The captains smile widened. I am pleased that I can help you. We will have a happy voyage,
yes?
I am certain of it, said Gerris. The captain called for ale then, and the two of them drank a
toast to their venture.
A sweet man, Gerris said afterward, as he and Quentyn made their way down to the foot of
the pier where their hired hathay waited. The air hung hot and heavy, and the sun was so bright that
both of them were squinting.
This is a sweet city, Quentyn agreed. Sweet enough to rot your teeth. Sweet beets were grown
in profusion hereabouts, and were served with almost every meal. The Volantenes made a cold soup of
them, as thick and rich as purple honey. Their wines were sweet as well. I fear our happy voyage will be
short, however. That sweet man does not mean to take us to Meereen. He was too quick to accept your
offer. Hell take thrice the usual fee, no doubt, and once he has us aboard and out of sight of land, hell
slit our throats and take the rest of our gold as well.
Or chain us to an oar, beside those wretches we were smelling. We need to find a better class
of smuggler, I think.
Their driver awaited them beside his hathay. In Westeros, it might have been called an oxcart,
though it was a deal more ornate than any cart that Quentyn had ever seen in Dorne, and lacked an ox.
The hathay was pulled by a dwarf elephant, her hide the color of dirty snow. The streets of Old Volantis
were full of such.
Quentyn would have preferred to walk, but they were miles from their inn. Besides, the innkeep
at the Merchants House had warned him that traveling afoot would taint them in the eyes of foreign
captains and the native-born Volantenes alike. Persons of quality traveled by palanquin, or in the back of
a hathay  and as it happened the innkeep had a cousin who owned several such contrivances and
would be pleased to serve them in this matter.
Their driver was one of the cousins slaves, a small man with a wheel tattooed upon one cheek,
naked but for a breechclout and a pair of sandals. His skin was the color of teak, his eyes chips of flint.
After he had helped them up onto the cushioned bench between the carts two huge wooden wheels,

he clambered onto the elephants back. The Merchants House, Quentyn told him, but go along the
wharves. Beyond the waterfront and its breezes, the streets and alleys of Volantis were hot enough to
drown a man in his own sweat, at least on this side of the river.
The driver shouted something at his elephant in the local tongue. The beast began to move,
trunk swaying from side to side. The cart lurched along behind her, the driver hooting at sailors and
slaves alike to clear the way. It was easy enough to tell one from the other. The slaves were all tattooed:
a mask of blue feathers, a lightning bolt that ran from jaw to brow, a coin upon the cheek, a leopards
spots, a skull, a jug. Maester Kedry said there were five slaves for every free man in Volantis though he
had not lived long enough to verify his estimate. He had perished on the morning the corsairs swarmed
aboard the Meadowlark.
Quentyn lost two other friends that same dayWillam Wells with his freckles and his crooked
teeth, fearless with a lance, and Cletus Yron-wood, handsome despite his lazy eye, always randy, always
laughing. Cletus had been Quentyns dearest friend for half his life, a brother in all but blood. Give your
bride a kiss for me, Cletus had whispered to him, just before he died.
The corsairs had come aboard in the darkness before the dawn, as the Meadowlark was
anchored off the coast of the Disputed Lands. The crew had beaten them off, at the cost of twelve lives.
Afterward the sailors stripped the dead corsairs of boots and belts and weapons, divvied up their purses,
and yanked gemstones from their ears and rings from their fingers. One of the corpses was so fat that
the ships cook had to cut his fingers off with a meat cleaver to claim his rings. It took three
Meadowlarks to roll the body into the sea. The other pirates were chucked in after him, without a word
of prayer or ceremony.
Their own dead received more tender treatment. The sailors sewed their bodies up in canvas,
weighed down with ballast stones so they might sink more quickly. The captain of the Meadowlark led
his crew in a prayer for the souls of their slain shipmates. Then he turned to his Dornish passengers, the
three who still remained of the six who had come aboard at the Planky Town. Even the big man had
emerged, pale and greensick and unsteady on his feet, struggling up from the depths of the ships hold
to pay his last respects. One of you should say some words for your dead, before we give them to the
sea, the captain said. Gerris had obliged, lying with every other word, since he dare not tell the truth of
who theyd been or why theyd come.
It was not supposed to end like that for them. This will be a tale to tell our grandchildren,
Cletus had declared the day they set out from his fathers castle. Will made a face at that, and said, A
tale to tell tavern wenches, you mean, in hopes theyll lift their skirts. Cletus had slapped him on the
back. For grandchildren, you need children. For children, you need to lift some skirts. Later, in the
Planky Town, the Dornishmen had toasted Quentyns future bride, made ribald japes about his wedding
night to come, and talked about the things theyd see, the deeds theyd do, the glory they would win. All
they won was a sailcloth sack filled with ballast stones.
As much as he mourned Will and Cletus, it was the maesters loss that Quentyn felt most keenly.
Kedry had been fluent in the tongues of all of the Free Cities, and even the mongrel Ghiscari that men

spoke along the shores of Slavers Bay. Maester Kedry will accompany you, his father said the night
they parted. Heed his counsel. He has devoted half his life to the study of the Nine Free Cities.
Quentyn wondered if things might not have gone a deal easier if only he were here to guide them.
I would sell my mother for a bit of breeze, said Gerris, as they rolled through the dockside
throngs. Its moist as the Maidens cunt, and still shy of noon. I hate this city.
Quentyn shared the feeling. The sullen wet heat of Volantis sapped his strength and left him
feeling dirty. The worst part was knowing that nightfall would bring no relief. Up in the high meadows
north of Lord Yronwoods estates, the air was always crisp and cool after dark, no matter how hot the
day had been. Not here. In Volantis, the nights were almost as hot as the days.
The Goddess sails for New Ghis on the morrow, Gerris reminded him. That at least would
bring us closer.
New Ghis is an island, and a much smaller port than this. We would be closer, yes, but we could
find ourselves stranded. And New Ghis has allied with the Yunkaii. That news had not come as a
surprise to Quentyn. New Ghis and Yunkai were both Ghiscari cities. If Volantis should ally with them as
well
We need to find a ship from Westeros, suggested Gerris, some trader out of Lannisport or
Oldtown.
Few come this far, and those who do fill their holds with silk and spice from the Jade Sea, then
bend their oars for home.
Perhaps a Braavosi ship? One hears of purple sails as far away as Asshai and the islands of the
Jade Sea.
The Braavosi are descended from escaped slaves. They do not trade in Slavers Bay.
Do we have enough gold to buy a ship?
And who will sail her? You? Me? Dornishmen had never been seafarers, not since Nymeria
burned her ten thousand ships. The seas around Valyria are perilous, and thick with corsairs.
I have had enough of corsairs. Lets not buy a ship.
This is still just a game to him, Quentyn realized, no different than the time he led six of us up
into the mountains to find the old lair of the Vulture King. It was not in Gerris Drinkwaters nature to
imagine they might fail, let alone that they might die. Even the deaths of three friends had not served to
chasten him, it would seem. He leaves that to me. He knows my nature is as cautious as his is bold.
Perhaps the big man is right, Ser Gerris said. Piss on the sea, we can finish the journey
overland.

You know why he says that, Quentyn said. Hed rather die than set foot on another ship. The
big man had been greensick every day of their voyage. In Lys, it had taken him four days to recover his
strength. Theyd had to take rooms in an inn so Maester Kedry could tuck him into a feather bed and
feed him broths and potions until some pink returned to his cheeks.
It was possible to go overland to Meereen, that much was true. The old Valyrian roads would
take them there. Dragon roads, men called the great stone roadways of the Freehold, but the one that
ran eastward from Volantis to Meereen had earned a more sinister name: the demon road.
The demon road is dangerous, and too slow, Quentyn said. Tywin Lannister will send his own
men after the queen once word of her reaches Kings Landing. His father had been certain of that. His
will come with knives. If they reach her first
Lets hope her dragons will sniff them out and eat them, said Gerris. Well, if we cannot find a
ship, and you will not let us ride, we had as well book passage back to Dorne.
Crawl back to Sunspear defeated, with my tail between my legs? His fathers disappointment
would be more than Quentyn could bear, and the scorn of the Sand Snakes would be withering. Doran
Martell had put the fate of Dorne into his hands, he could not fail him, not whilst life remained.
Heat shimmers rose off the street as the hathay rattled and jounced along on its iron-rimmed
wheels, giving a dreamlike quality to their surroundings. In amongst the warehouses and the wharves,
shops and stalls of many sorts crowded the waterfront. Here fresh oysters could be bought, here iron
chains and manacles, here cyvasse pieces carved of ivory and jade. Here were temples too, where sailors
came to sacrifice to foreign gods, cheek by jowl with pillow houses where women called down from
balconies to men below. Have a look at that one, Gerris urged, as they passed one pillow house. I
think shes in love with you.
And how much does a whores love cost? Truth be told, girls made Quentyn anxious, especially
the pretty ones.
When first hed come to Yronwood, he had been smitten with Ynys, the eldest of Lord
Yronwoods daughters. Though he never said a word about his feelings, he nursed his dreams for years
 until the day she was dispatched to wed Ser Ryon Allyrion, the heir to Godsgrace. The last time he had
seen her, shed had one boy at her breast and another clinging to her skirts.
After Ynys had come the Drinkwater twins, a pair of tawny young maidens who loved hawking,
hunting, climbing rocks, and making Quentyn blush. One of them had given him his first kiss, though he
never knew which one. As daughters of a landed knight, the twins were too lowborn to marry, but
Cletus did not think that was any reason to stop kissing them. After youre wed you can take one of
them for a paramour. Or both, why not? But Quentyn thought of several reasons why not, so he had
done his best to avoid the twins thereafter, and there had been no second kiss.
More recently, the youngest of Lord Yronwoods daughters had taken to following him about
the castle. Gwyneth was but twelve, a small, scrawny girl whose dark eyes and brown hair set her apart

in that house of blue-eyed blondes. She was clever, though, as quick with words as with her hands, and
fond of telling Quentyn that he had to wait for her to flower, so she could marry him.
That was before Prince Doran had summoned him to the Water Gardens. And now the most
beautiful woman in the world was waiting in Meereen, and he meant to do his duty and claim her for his
bride. She will not refuse me. She will honor the agreement. Daenerys Targaryen would need Dorne to
win the Seven Kingdoms, and that meant that she would need him. It does not mean that she will love
me, though. She may not even like me.
The street curved where the river met the sea, and there along the bend a number of animal
sellers were clustered together, offering jeweled lizards, giant banded snakes, and agile little monkeys
with striped tails and clever pink hands. Perhaps your silver queen would like a monkey, said Gerris.
Quentyn had no idea what Daenerys Targaryen might like. He had promised his father that he
would bring her back to Dorne, but more and more he wondered if he was equal to the task.
I never asked for this, he thought.
Across the wide blue expanse of the Rhoyne, he could see the Black Wall that had been raised
by the Valyrians when Volantis was no more than an outpost of their empire: a great oval of fused stone
two hundred feet high and so thick that six four-horse chariots could race around its top abreast, as they
did each year to celebrate the founding of the city. Outlanders, foreigners, and freedmen were not
allowed inside the Black Wall save at the invitation of those who dwelt within, scions of the Old Blood
who could trace their ancestry back to Valyria itself.
The traffic was thicker here. They were near the western end of the Long Bridge, which linked
the two halves of the city. Wayns and carts and hathays crowded the streets, all of them coming from
the bridge or making for it. Slaves were everywhere, as numerous as roaches, scurrying about their
masters business.
Not far from Fishermongers Square and the Merchants House, shouts erupted from a cross
street, and a dozen Unsullied spearmen in ornate armor and tiger-skin cloaks appeared as if from
nowhere, waving everyone aside so the triarch could pass through atop his elephant. The triarchs
elephant was a grey-skinned behemoth clad in elaborate enameled armor that clattered softly as he
moved, the castle on its back so tall that it scraped the top of the ornamental stone arch he was passing
underneath. The triarchs are considered so elevated that their feet are not allowed to touch the
ground during their year of service, Quentyn informed his companion. They ride everywhere on
elephants.
Blocking up the streets and leaving heaps of dung for the likes of us to contend with, said
Gerris. Why Volantis needs three princes when Dorne makes do with one, I will never know.
The triarchs are neither kings nor princes. Volantis is a freehold, like Valyria of old. All freeborn
landholders share the rule. Even women are allowed to vote, provided they own land. The three triarchs
are chosen from amongst those noble families who can prove unbroken descent from old Valyria, to

serve until the first day of the new year. And you would know all this if you had troubled to read the
book that Maester Kedry gave you.
It had no pictures.
There were maps.
Maps do not count. If he had told me it was about tigers and elephants, I might have given it a
try. It looked suspiciously like a history.
When their hathay reached the edge of the Fishermongers Square, their elephant lifted her
trunk and made a honking noise like some huge white goose, reluctant to plunge into the tangle of
wayns, palanquins, and foot traffic ahead. Their driver prodded her with his heel and kept her moving.
The fishmongers were out in strength, crying the morning catch. Quentyn understood one word
in two at best, but he did not need to know the words to know the fish. He saw cod and sailfish and
sardines, barrels of mussels and clams. Eels hung along the front of one stall. Another displayed a
gigantic turtle, strung up by its legs on iron chains, heavy as a horse. Crabs scrabbled inside casks of
brine and seaweed. Several of the vendors were frying chunks of fish with onions and beets, or selling
peppery fish stew out of small iron kettles.
In the center of the square, under the cracked and headless statue of a dead triarch, a crowd
had begun to gather about some dwarfs putting on a show. The little men were done up in wooden
armor, miniature knights preparing for a joust. Quentyn saw one mount a dog, as the other hopped onto
a pig  only to slide right off again, to a smattering of laughter.
They look amusing, Gerris said. Shall we stop and watch them fight? A laugh might serve you
well, Quent. You look like an old man who has not moved his bowels in half a year.
I am eight-and-ten, six years younger than you, Quentyn thought. I am no old man. Instead he
said, I have no need for comic dwarfs. Unless they have a ship.
A small one, I would think.
Four stories tall, the Merchants House dominated the docks and wharves and storehouses that
surrounded it. Here traders from Oldtown and Kings Landing mingled with their counterparts from
Braavos and Pentos and Myr, with hairy Ibbenese, pale-skinned voyagers from Qarth, coal-black
Summer Islanders in feathered cloaks, even masked shadow-binders from Asshai by the Shadow.
The paving stones felt warm beneath his feet when Quentyn climbed down from the hathay,
even through the leather of his boots. Outside the Merchants House a trestle table had been set up in
the shade and decorated with striped blue-and-white pennons that fluttered at every breath of air. Four
hard-eyed sellswords lounged around the table, calling out to every passing man and boy. Windblown,
Quentyn knew. The serjeants were looking for fresh meat to fill their ranks before they sailed for

Slavers Bay. And every man who signs with them is another sword for Yunkai, another blade meant to
drink the blood of my bride-to-be.
One of the Windblown shouted at them. I do not speak your tongue, Quentyn answered.
Though he could read and write High Valyrian, he had little practice speaking it. And the Volantene
apple had rolled a fair distance from the Valyrian tree.
Westerosi? the man answered, in the Common Tongue. Dornishmen. My master is a
wineseller.
Master? Fuck that. Are you a slave? Come with us and be your own master. Do you want to die
abed? Well teach you sword and spear. Youll ride to battle with the Tattered Prince and come home
richer than a lord. Boys, girls, gold, whatever you want, if youre man enough to take it. Were the
Windblown, and we fuck the goddess slaughter up her arse.
Two of the sellswords began to sing, bellowing out the words to some marching song. Quentyn
understood enough to get the gist. We are the Windblown, they sang. Blow us east to Slavers Bay, well
kill the butcher king and fuck the dragon queen.
If Cletus and Will were still with us, we could come back with the big man and kill the lot of
them, said Gerris.
Cletus and Will are dead. Pay them no mind, Quentyn said. The sellswords threw taunts at
their backs as they pushed through the doors of the Merchants House, mocking them as bloodless
cravens and frightened girls.
The big man was waiting in their rooms on the second floor. Though the inn had come well
recommended by the master of the Meadowlark, that did not mean Quentyn was willing to leave their
goods and gold unguarded. Every port had thieves, rats, and whores, and Volantis had more than most.
I was about to go out looking for you, Ser Archibald Yronwood said as he slid the bar back to
admit them. It was his cousin Cletus who had started calling him the big man, but the name was well
deserved. Arch was six-and-a-half-feet tall, broad of shoulder, huge of belly, with legs like tree trunks,
hands the size of hams, and no neck to speak of. Some childhood malady had made all his hair fall out.
His bald head reminded Quentyn of a smooth pink boulder. So, he demanded, what did the smuggler
say? Do we have a boat?
A ship, corrected Quentyn. Aye, hell take us, but only as far as the nearest hell.
Gerris sat upon a sagging bed and pulled off his boots. Dorne is sounding more attractive every
moment.
The big man said, I still say we would do better to ride the demon road. Might be its not as
perilous as men say. And if it is, that only means more glory for those who dare it. Who would dare
molest us? Drink with his sword, me with my hammer, thats more than any demon could digest.

And if Daenerys is dead before we reach her? Quentyn said. We must have a ship. Even if it is
Adventure.
Gerris laughed. You must be more desperate for Daenerys than I knew if youd endure that
stench for months on end. After three days, Id be begging them to murder me. No, my prince, I pray
you, not Adventure.
Do you have a better way? Quentyn asked him. I do. Its just now come to me. It has its risks,
and it is not what you would call honorable, I grant you  but it will get you to your queen quicker than
the demon road.
Tell me, said Quentyn Martell.
JON
Jon Snow read the letter over until the words began to blur and run together. I cannot sign this. I
will not sign this.
He almost burned the parchment then and there. Instead he took a sip of ale, the dregs of the
half cup that remained from his solitary supper the night before. I have to sign it. They chose me to be
their lord commander. The Wall is mine, and the Watch as well. The Nights Watch takes no part.
It was a relief when Dolorous Edd Tollett opened the door to tell him that Gilly was without. Jon
set Maester Aemons letter aside. I will see her. He dreaded this. Find Sam for me. I will want to
speak with him next.
Hell be down with the books. My old septon used to say that books are dead men talking.
Dead men should keep quiet, is what I say. No one wants to hear a dead mans yabber. Dolorous Edd
went off muttering of worms and spiders.
When Gilly entered, she went at once to her knees. Jon came around the table and drew her to
her feet. You dont need to take a knee for me. Thats just for kings. Though a wife and mother, Gilly
still seemed half a child to him, a slender little thing wrapped up in one of Sams old cloaks. The cloak
was so big on her that she could have hidden several other girls beneath its folds. The babes are well?
he asked her.
The wildling girl smiled timidly from under her cowl. Yes, mlord. I was scared I wouldnt have
milk enough for both, but the more they suck, the more I have. Theyre strong.
I have something hard to tell you. He almost said ask, but caught himself at the last instant.

Is it Mance? Val begged the king to spare him. She said shed let some kneeler marry her and
never slit his throat if only Mance could live. That Lord oBones, hes to be spared. Craster always swore
hed kill him if he ever showed his face about the keep. Mance never did half the things he done.
All Mance ever did was lead an army down upon the realm he once swore to protect. Mance
said our words, Gilly. Then he turned his cloak, wed Dalla, and crowned himself King-Beyond-the-Wall.
His life is in the kings hands now. Its not him we need to talk about. Its his son. Dallas boy.
The babe? Her voice trembled. He never broke no oath, mlord. He sleeps and cries and
sucks, is all; hes never done no harm to no one. Dont let her burn him. Save him, please.
Only you can do that, Gilly. Jon told her how.
Another woman would have shrieked at him, cursed him, damned him down to seven hells.
Another woman might have flown at him in rage, slapped him, kicked him, raked at his eyes with her
nails. Another woman might have thrown her defiance in his teeth.
Gilly shook her head. No. Please, no.
The raven picked up the word. No, it screamed. Refuse, and the boy will burn. Not on the
morrow, nor the day after  but soon, whenever Melisandre needs to wake a dragon or raise a wind or
work some other spell requiring kings blood. Mance will be ash and bone by then, so she will claim his
son for the fire, and Stannis will not deny her. If you do not take the boy away, she will burn him.
Ill go, said Gilly. Ill take him, Ill take the both o them, Dallas boy and mine. Tears rolled
down her cheeks. If not for the way the candle made them glisten, Jon might never have known that she
was weeping. Crasters wives would have taught their daughters to shed their tears into a pillow.
Perhaps they went outside to weep, well away from Crasters fists.
Jon closed the fingers of his sword hand. Take both boys and the queens men will ride after
you and drag you back. The boy will still burn  and you with him. If I comfort her, she may think that
tears can move me. She has to realize that I will not yield. Youll take one boy, and that one Dallas.
A mother cant leave her son, or else shes cursed forever. Not a son. We saved him, Sam and
me. Please. Please, mlord. We saved him from the cold.
Men say that freezing to death is almost peaceful. Fire, though  do you see the candle, Gilly?
She looked at the flame. Yes.
Touch it. Put your hand over the flame.
Her big brown eyes grew bigger still. She did not move. Do it. Kill the boy. Now.
Trembling, the girl reached out her hand, held it well above the flickering candle flame.
Down. Let it kiss you.

Gilly lowered her hand. An inch. Another. When the flame licked her flesh, she snatched her
hand back and began to sob.
Fire is a cruel way to die. Dalla died to give this child life, but you have nourished him,
cherished him. You saved your own boy from the ice. Now save hers from the fire.
Theyll burn my babe, then. The red woman. If she cant have Dallas, shell burn mine.
Your son has no kings blood. Melisandre gains nothing by giving him to the fire. Stannis wants
the free folk to fight for him, he will not burn an innocent without good cause. Your boy will be safe. I
will find a wet nurse for him and hell be raised here at Castle Black under my protection. Hell learn to
hunt and ride, to fight with sword and axe and bow. Ill even see that he is taught to read and write.
Sam would like that. And when he is old enough, he will learn the truth of who he is. Hell be free to
seek you out if that is what he wants.
You will make a crow of him. She wiped at her tears with the back of a small pale hand. I
wont. I wont.
Kill the boy, thought Jon. You will. Else I promise you, the day that they burn Dallas boy, yours
will die as well.
Die, shrieked the Old Bears raven. Die, die, die.
The girl sat hunched and shrunken, staring at the candle flame, tears glistening in her eyes.
Finally Jon said, You have my leave to go. Do not speak of this, but see that you are ready to depart an
hour before first light. My men will come for you.
Gilly got to her feet. Pale and wordless, she departed, with never a look back at him. Jon heard
her footsteps as she rushed through the armory. She was almost running.
When he went to close the door, Jon saw that Ghost was stretched out beneath the anvil,
gnawing on the bone of an ox. The big white direwolf looked up at his approach. Past time that you
were back. He returned to his chair, to read over Maester Aemons letter once again.
Samwell Tarly turned up a few moments later, clutching a stack of books. No sooner had he
entered than Mormonts raven flew at him demanding corn. Sam did his best to oblige, offering some
kernels from the sack beside the door. The raven did its best to peck through his palm. Sam yowled, the
bird flapped off, corn scattered. Did that wretch break the skin? Jon asked.
Sam gingerly removed his glove. He did. Im bleeding.
We all shed our blood for the Watch. Wear thicker gloves. Jon shoved a chair toward him with
a foot. Sit, and have a look at this. He handed Sam the parchment.
What is it?
A paper shield.

Sam read it slowly. A letter to King Tommen?
At Winterfell, Tommen fought my brother Bran with wooden swords, Jon said, remembering.
He wore so much padding he looked like a stuffed goose. Bran knocked him to the ground. He went to
the window and threw the shutters open. The air outside was cold and bracing, though the sky was a
dull grey. Yet Brans dead, and pudgy pink-faced Tommen is sitting on the Iron Throne, with a crown
nestled amongst his golden curls.
That got an odd look from Sam, and for a moment he looked as if he wanted to say something.
Instead he swallowed and turned back to the parchment. You havent signed the letter.
Jon shook his head. The Old Bear begged the Iron Throne for help a hundred times. They sent
him Janos Slynt. No letter will make the Lannisters love us better. Not once they hear that weve been
helping Stannis.
Only to defend the Wall, not in his rebellion. Thats what it says here.
The distinction may escape Lord Tywin. Jon snatched the letter back. Why would he help us
now? He never did before.
Well, he will not want it said that Stannis rode to the defense of the realm whilst King Tommen
was playing with his toys. That would bring scorn down upon House Lannister.
Its death and destruction I want to bring down upon House Lannister, not scorn. Jon read
from the letter. The Nights Watch takes no part in the wars of the Seven Kingdoms. Our oaths are
sworn to the realm, and the realm now stands in dire peril. Stannis Baratheon aids us against our foes
from beyond the Wall, though we are not his men 
Sam squirmed in his seat. Well, were not. Are we?
I gave Stannis food, shelter, and the Nightfort, plus leave to settle some free folk in the Gift.
Thats all.
Lord Tywin will say it was too much.
Stannis says its not enough. The more you give a king, the more he wants. We are walking on a
bridge of ice with an abyss on either side. Pleasing one king is difficult enough. Pleasing two is hardly
possible.
Yes, but  if the Lannisters should prevail and Lord Tywin decides that we betrayed the king by
aiding Stannis, it could mean the end of the Nights Watch. He has the Tyrells behind him, with all the
strength of Highgarden. And he did defeat Lord Stannis on the Blackwater.
The Blackwater was one battle. Robb won all his battles and still lost his head. If Stannis can
raise the north 

Sam hesitated, then said, The Lannisters have northmen of their own. Lord Bolton and his
bastard.
Stannis has the Karstarks. If he can win White Harbor 
If, Sam stressed. If not  my lord, even a paper shield is better than none.
I suppose so. Him and Aemon both. Somehow he had hoped that Sam Tarly might see it
differently. It is only ink and parchment. Resigned, he grabbed the quill and signed. Get the sealing
wax. Before I change my mind. Sam hastened to obey. Jon fixed the lord commanders seal and handed
him the letter. Take this to Maester Aemon when you leave, and tell him to dispatch a bird to Kings
Landing.
I will. Sam sounded relieved. My lord, if I might ask  I saw Gilly leaving. She was almost
crying.
Val sent her to plead for Mance again, Jon lied, and they talked for a while of Mance and
Stannis and Melisandre of Asshai, until the raven ate the last corn kernel and screamed, Blood.
I am sending Gilly away, Jon said. Her and the boy. We will need to find another wet nurse
for his milk brother.
Goats milk might serve, until you do. Its better for a babe than cows milk. Talking about
breasts plainly made Sam uncomfortable, and suddenly he began to speak of history, and boy
commanders who had lived and died hundreds of years ago. Jon cut him off with, Tell me something
useful. Tell me of our enemy.
The Others. Sam licked his lips. They are mentioned in the annals, though not as often as I
would have thought. The annals Ive found and looked at, that is. Theres more I havent found, I know.
Some of the older books are falling to pieces. The pages crumble when I try and turn them. And the
really old books  either they have crumbled all away or they are buried somewhere that I havent
looked yet or  well, it could be that there are no such books and never were. The oldest histories we
have were written after the Andals came to Westeros. The First Men only left us runes on rocks, so
everything we think we know about the Age of Heroes and the Dawn Age and the Long Night comes
from accounts set down by septons thousands of years later. There are archmaesters at the Citadel who
question all of it. Those old histories are full of kings who reigned for hundreds of years, and knights
riding around a thousand years before there were knights. You know the tales, Brandon the Builder,
Symeon Star-Eyes, Nights King  we say that youre the nine-hundred-and-ninety-eighth Lord
Commander of the Nights Watch, but the oldest list Ive found shows six hundred seventy-four
commanders, which suggests that it was written during
Long ago, Jon broke in. What about the Others?
I found mention of dragonglass. The children of the forest used to give the Nights Watch a
hundred obsidian daggers every year, during the Age of Heroes. The Others come when it is cold, most

of the tales agree. Or else it gets cold when they come. Sometimes they appear during snowstorms and
melt away when the skies clear. They hide from the light of the sun and emerge by night  or else night
falls when they emerge. Some stories speak of them riding the corpses of dead animals. Bears,
direwolves, mammoths, horses, it makes no matter, so long as the beast is dead. The one that killed
Small Paul was riding a dead horse, so that parts plainly true. Some accounts speak of giant ice spiders
too. I dont know what those are. Men who fall in battle against the Others must be burned, or else the
dead will rise again as their thralls.
We knew all this. The question is, how do we fight them?
The armor of the Others is proof against most ordinary blades, if the tales can be believed, and
their own swords are so cold they shatter steel. Fire will dismay them, though, and they are vulnerable
to obsidian. I found one account of the Long Night that spoke of the last hero slaying Others with a blade
of dragonsteel. Supposedly they could not stand against it.
Dragonsteel? The term was new to Jon. Valyrian steel?
That was my first thought as well.
So if I can just convince the lords of the Seven Kingdoms to give us their Valyrian blades, all is
saved? That wont be hard. No harder than asking them to give up their coin and castles. He gave a
bitter laugh. Did you find who the Others are, where they come from, what they want?
Not yet, my lord, but it may be that Ive just been reading the wrong books. There are hundreds
I have not looked at yet. Give me more time and I will find whatever there is to be found.
There is no more time. You need to get your things together, Sam. Youre going with Gilly.
Going? Sam gaped at him openmouthed, as if he did not understand the meaning of the word.
Im going? To Eastwatch, my lord? Or  where am I 
Oldtown.
Oldtown? Sam repeated, in a high-pitched squeak. Aemon as well.
Aemon? Maester Aemon? But  hes one hundred and two years old, my lord, he cant 
youre sending him and me? Who will tend the ravens? If theres sick or wounded, who 
Clydas. Hes been with Aemon for years.
Clydas is only a steward, and his eyes are going bad. You need a maester. Maester Aemon is so
frail, a sea voyage  it might  hes old, and 
His life will be at risk. I am aware of that, Sam, but the risk is greater here. Stannis knows who
Aemon is. If the red woman requires kings blood for her spells 

Oh. Sams fat cheeks seemed to drain of color. Dareon will join you at Eastwatch. My hope is
that his songs will win some men for us in the south. The Blackbird will deliver you to Braavos. From
there, youll arrange your own passage to Oldtown. If you still mean to claim Gillys babe as your
bastard, send her and the child on to Horn Hill. Elsewise, Aemon will find a servants place for her at the
Citadel.
My b-b-bastard. Yes, I  my mother and my sisters will help Gilly with the child. Dareon could
see her to Oldtown just as well as me. Im  Ive been working at my archery every afternoon with
Ulmer, as you commanded  well, except when Im in the vaults, but you told me to find out about the
Others. The longbow makes my shoulders ache and raises blisters on my fingers. He showed Jon his
hand. I still do it, though. I can hit the target more often than not now, but Im still the worst archer
who ever bent a bow. I like Ulmers stories, though. Someone needs to write them down and put them
in a book.
You do it. They have parchment and ink at the Citadel, as well as longbows. I will expect you to
continue with your practice. Sam, the Nights Watch has hundreds of men who can loose an arrow, but
only a handful who can read or write. I need you to become my new maester.
My lord, I  my work is here, the books 
 will be here when you return to us.
Sam put a hand to his throat. My lord, the Citadel  they make you cut up corpses there. I
cannot wear a chain.
You can. You will. Maester Aemon is old and blind. His strength is leaving him. Who will take his
place when he dies? Maester Mullin at the Shadow Tower is more fighter than scholar, and Maester
Harmune of Eastwatch is drunk more than hes sober.
If you ask the Citadel for more maesters 
I mean to. Well have need of every one. Aemon Targaryen is not so easily replaced, however.
This is not going as I had hoped. He had known Gilly would be hard, but he had assumed Sam would be
glad to trade the dangers of the Wall for the warmth of Oldtown. I was certain this would please you,
he said, puzzled. There are so many books at the Citadel that no man can hope to read them all. You
would do well there, Sam. I know you would.
No. I could read the books, but  a m-maester must be a healer and b-b-blood makes me
faint. His hand shook, to prove the truth of that. Im Sam the Scared, not Sam the Slayer.
Scared? Of what? The chidings of old men? Sam, you saw the wights come swarming up the
Fist, a tide of living dead men with black hands and bright blue eyes. You slew an Other.
It was the d-d-d-dragonglass, not me.

Be quiet, Jon snapped. After Gilly, he had no patience for the fat boys fears. You lied and
schemed and plotted to make me lord commander. You will obey me. Youll go to the Citadel and forge
a chain, and if you have to cut up corpses, so be it. At least in Oldtown the corpses wont object.
My lord, my f-f-f-father, Lord Randyll, he, he, he, he, he  the life of a maester is a life of
servitude. No son of House Tarly will ever wear a chain. The men of Horn Hill do not bow and scrape to
petty lords. Jon, I cannot disobey my father.
Kill the boy, Jon thought. The boy in you, and the one in him. Kill the both of them, you bloody
bastard. You have no father. Only brothers. Only us. Your life belongs to the Nights Watch, so go and
stuff your small-clothes into a sack, along with anything else you care to take to Oldtown. You leave an
hour before sunrise. And heres another order. From this day forth, you will not call yourself a craven.
Youve faced more things this past year than most men face in a lifetime. You can face the Citadel, but
youll face it as a Sworn Brother of the Nights Watch. I cant command you to be brave, but I can
command you to hide your fears. You said the words, Sam. Remember?
I  Ill try.
You wont try. You will obey.
Obey. Mormonts raven flapped its great black wings.
Sam seemed to sag. As my lord commands. Does  does Maester Aemon know?
It was as much his idea as mine. Jon opened the door for him. No farewells. The fewer folk
who know of this, the better. An hour before first light, by the lichyard.
Sam fled from him just as Gilly had.
Jon was tired. I need sleep. He had been up half the night poring over maps, writing letters, and
making plans with Maester Aemon. Even after stumbling into his narrow bed, rest had not come easily.
He knew what he would face today, and found himself tossing restlessly as he brooded on Maester
Aemons final words. Allow me to give my lord one last piece of counsel, the old man had said, the
same counsel that I once gave my brother when we parted for the last time. He was three-and-thirty
when the Great Council chose him to mount the Iron Throne. A man grown with sons of his own, yet in
some ways still a boy. Egg had an innocence to him, a sweetness we all loved. Kill the boy within you, I
told him the day I took ship for the Wall. It takes a man to rule. An Aegon, not an Egg. Kill the boy and let
the man be born. The old man felt Jons face. You are half the age that Egg was, and your own burden
is a crueler one, I fear. You will have little joy of your command, but I think you have the strength in you
to do the things that must be done. Kill the boy, Jon Snow. Winter is almost upon us. Kill the boy and let
the man be born.
Jon donned his cloak and strode outside. He made the rounds of Castle Black each day, visiting
the men on watch and hearing their reports first hand, watching Ulmer and his charges at the archery

butts, talking with kings men and queens men alike, walking the ice atop the Wall to have a look at the
forest. Ghost padded after him, a white shadow at his side.
Kedge Whiteye had the Wall when Jon made his ascent. Kedge had seen forty-odd namedays,
thirty of them on the Wall. His left eye was blind, his right eye mean. In the wild, alone with axe and
garron, he was as good a ranger as any in the Watch, but he had never gotten on well with the other
men. A quiet day, he told Jon. Nothing to report, except the wrong-way rangers.
The wrong-way rangers? Jon asked.
Kedge grinned. A pair of knights. Went riding off an hour ago, south along the kingsroad. When
Dywen saw them buggering off, he said the southron fools were riding the wrong way.
I see, said Jon.
He found out more from Dywen himself, as the old forester sucked down a bowl of barley broth
in the barracks. Aye, mlord, I saw them. Horpe and Massey, it were. Claimed Stannis sent em out, but
never said where or what for or when they would be back.
Ser Richard Horpe and Ser Justin Massey were both queens men, and high in the kings councils.
A pair of common freeriders would have served if all that Stannis had in mind was scouting, Jon Snow
reflected, but knights are better suited to act as messengers or envoys. Cotter Pyke had sent word from
Eastwatch that the Onion Lord and Salladhor Saan had set sail for White Harbor to treat with Lord
Manderly. It made sense that Stannis would send out other envoys. His Grace was not a patient man.
Whether the wrong-way rangers would return was another question. Knights they might be, but
they did not know the north. There will be eyes along the kingsroad, not all of them friendly. It was none
of Jons concern, though. Let Stannis have his secrets. The gods know that I have mine.
Ghost slept at the foot of the bed that night, and for once Jon did not dream he was a wolf. Even
so, he slept fitfully, tossing for hours before sliding down into a nightmare. Gilly was in it, weeping,
pleading with him to leave her babes alone, but he ripped the children from her arms and hacked their
heads off, then swapped the heads around and told her to sew them back in place.
When he woke, he found Edd Tollett looming over him in the darkness of his bedchamber.
Mlord? It is time. The hour of the wolf. You left orders to be woken.
Bring me something hot. Jon threw off his blankets.
Edd was back by the time that he had dressed, pressing a steaming cup into his hands. Jon
expected hot mulled wine, and was surprised to find that it was soup, a thin broth that smelled of leeks
and carrots but seemed to have no leeks or carrots in it. The smells are stronger in my wolf dreams, he
reflected, and food tastes richer too. Ghost is more alive than I am. He left the empty cup upon the
forge.

Kegs was on his door this morning. I will want to speak with Bedwyck and with Janos Slynt, Jon
told him. Have them both here at first light.
Outside the world was black and still. Cold, but not dangerously cold. Not yet. It will be warmer
when the sun comes up. If the gods are good, the Wall may weep. When they reached the lichyard, the
column had already formed up. Jon had given Black Jack Bulwer command of the escort, with a dozen
mounted rangers under him, and two wayns. One was piled high with chests and crates and sacks,
provisions for the journey. The other had a stiff roof of boiled leather to keep the wind off. Maester
Aemon was seated in the back of it, huddled in a bearskin that made him look as small as a child. Sam
and Gilly stood nearby. Her eyes were red and puffy, but the boy was in her arms, bundled tight.
Whether it was her boy or Dallas he could not be sure. He had only seen the two together a few times.
Gillys boy was older, Dallas more robust, but they were close enough in age and size so that no one
who did not know them well would be able to easily tell one from the other.
Lord Snow, Maester Aemon called out, I left a book for you in my chambers. The Jade
Compendium. It was written by the Volantene adventurer Colloquo Votar, who traveled to the east and
visited all the lands of the Jade Sea. There is a passage you may find of interest. Ive told Clydas to mark
it for you.
Ill be sure to read it.
Maester Aemon wiped his nose. Knowledge is a weapon, Jon. Arm yourself well before you ride
forth to battle.
I will. Jon felt something wet and cold upon his face. When he raised his eyes, he saw that it
was snowing. A bad omen. He turned to Black Jack Bulwer. Make as good a time as you can, but take no
foolish risks. You have an old man and a suckling babe with you. See that you keep them warm and well
fed.
You do the same, mlord. Gilly did not seem in any haste to climb into the wayn. You do the
same for tother. Find another wet nurse, like you said. You promised me you would. The boy  Dallas
boy  the little prince, I mean  you find him some good woman, so he grows up big and strong.
You have my word.
Dont you name him. Dont you do that, till hes past two years. Its ill luck to name them when
theyre still on the breast. You crows may not know that, but its true.
As you command, my lady.
Dont you call me that. Im a mother, not a lady. Im Crasters wife and Crasters daughter, and
a mother. She gave the babe to Dolorous Edd as she climbed into the wayn and covered herself with
furs. When Edd gave her back the child, Gilly put him to her breast. Sam turned away from the sight,
red-faced, and heaved himself up onto his mare. Lets do this, commanded Black Jack Bulwer,
snapping his whip. The wayns rolled forward.

Sam lingered a moment. Well, he said, farewell.
And to you, Sam, said Dolorous Edd. Your boats not like to sink, I dont think. Boats only sink
when Im aboard.
Jon was remembering. The first time I saw Gilly she was pressed back against the wall of
Crasters Keep, this skinny darkhaired girl with her big belly, cringing away from Ghost. He had gotten in
among her rabbits, and I think she was frightened that he would tear her open and devour the babe 
but it was not the wolf she should have been afraid of, was it?
She has more courage than she knows, said Sam. So do you, Sam. Have a swift, safe voyage,
and take care of her and Aemon and the child. The cold trickles on his face reminded Jon of the day
hed bid farewell to Robb at Winterfell, never knowing that it was for the last time. And pull your hood
up. The snowflakes are melting in your hair.
By the time the little column had dwindled in the distance, the eastern sky had gone from black
to grey and the snow was falling heavily. Giant will be waiting on the lord commanders pleasure,
Dolorous Edd reminded him. Janos Slynt as well.
Yes. Jon Snow glanced up at the Wall, towering over them like a cliff of ice. A hundred leagues
from end to end, and seven hundred feet high. The strength of the Wall was its height; the length of the
Wall was its weakness. Jon remembered something his father had said once. A wall is only as strong as
the men who stand behind it. The men of the Nights Watch were brave enough, but they were far too
few for the task that confronted them.
Giant was waiting in the armory. His real name was Bedwyck. At a hair and a half over five feet
he was the smallest man in the Nights Watch. Jon came directly to the point. We need more eyes
along the Wall. Way-castles where our patrols can get out of the cold and find hot food and a fresh
mount. I am putting a garrison in Icemark and giving you command of it.
Giant put the tip of his little finger in his ear to clean out the wax. Command? Me? Mlord
knows Im just a crofters get, on the Wall for poaching?
Youve been a ranger for a dozen years. You survived the Fist of the First Men and Crasters
Keep, and came back to tell the tale. The younger men look up to you.
The small man laughed. Only dwarfs look up to me. I dont read, my lord. On a good day I can
write my name.
Ive sent to Oldtown for more maesters. Youll have two ravens for when your need is urgent.
When its not, send riders. Until we have more maesters and more birds, I mean to establish a line of
beacon towers along the top of the Wall.
And how many poor fools will I be commanding?

Twenty, from the Watch, said Jon, and half as many men from Stannis. Old, green, or
wounded. They wont be his best men, and none will take the black, but theyll obey. Make what use of
them you can. Four of the brothers Im sending with you will be Kingslanders who came to the Wall with
Lord Slynt. Keep one eye on that lot and watch for climbers with the other.
We can watch, mlord, but if enough climbers gain the top o the Wall, thirty men wont be
enough to throw them off.
Three hundred might not be enough. Jon kept that doubt to himself. It was true that climbers
were desperately vulnerable whilst on the ascent. Stones and spears and pots of burning pitch could be
rained down on them from above, and all they could do was cling desperately to the ice. Sometimes the
Wall itself seemed to shake them off, as a dog might shake off fleas. Jon had seen that for himself, when
a sheet of ice cracked beneath Vals lover Jarl, sending him to his death.
If the climbers reached the top of the Wall undetected, however, everything changed. Given
time, they could carve out a toehold for themselves up there, throwing up ramparts of their own and
dropping ropes and ladders for thousands more to clamber over after them. That was how Raymun
Redbeard had done it, Raymun who had been King-Beyond-the-Wall in the days of his grandfathers
grandfather. Jack Musgood had been the lord commander in those days. Jolly Jack, he was called before
Redbeard came down upon the north; Sleepy Jack, forever after. Raymuns host had met a bloody end
on the shores of Long Lake, caught between Lord Willam of Winterfell and the Drunken Giant, Harmond
Umber. Red-beard had been slain by Artos the Implacable, Lord Willams younger brother. The Watch
arrived too late to fight the wildlings, but in time to bury them, the task that Artos Stark assigned them
in his wroth as he grieved above the headless corpse of his fallen brother.
Jon did not intend to be remembered as Sleepy Jon Snow. Thirty men will stand a better
chance than none, he told Giant.
True enough, the small man said. Is it just to be Icemark, then, or will mlord be opening
tother forts as well?
I mean to garrison all of them, in time, said Jon, but for the moment, it will just be Icemark
and Greyguard.
And has mlord decided whos to command at Greyguard?
Janos Slynt, said Jon. Gods save us. A man does not rise to command of the gold cloaks
without ability. Slynt was born a butchers son. He was captain of the Iron Gate when Manly Stokeworth
died, and Jon Arryn raised him up and put the defense of Kings Landing into his hands. Lord Janos
cannot be as great a fool as he seems. And I want him well away from Alliser Thorne.
Might be thats so, said Giant, but Id still send him to the kitchens to help Three-Finger Hobb
cut up the turnips.
If I did, Id never dare to eat another turnip.

Half the morning passed before Lord Janos reported as commanded. Jon was cleaning Longclaw.
Some men would have given that task to a steward or a squire, but Lord Eddard had taught his sons to
care for their own weapons. When Kegs and Dolorous Edd arrived with Slynt, Jon thanked them and bid
Lord Janos sit.
That he did, albeit with poor grace, crossing his arms, scowling, and ignoring the naked steel in
his lord commanders hands. Jon slid the oilcloth down his bastard sword, watching the play of morning
light across the ripples, thinking how easily the blade would slide through skin and fat and sinew to part
Slynts ugly head from his body. All of a mans crimes were wiped away when he took the black, and all
of his allegiances as well, yet he found it hard to think of Janos Slynt as a brother. There is blood
between us. This man helped slay my father and did his best to have me killed as well.
Lord Janos. Jon sheathed his sword. I am giving you command of Greyguard.
That took Slynt aback. Greyguard  Greyguard was where you climbed the Wall with your
wildling friends 
It was. The fort is in a sorry state, admittedly. You will restore it as best you can. Start by
clearing back the forest. Steal stones from the structures that have collapsed to repair those still
standing. The work will be hard and brutal, he might have added. Youll sleep on stone, too exhausted
to complain or plot, and soon youll forget what it was like to be warm, but you might remember what it
was to be a man. You will have thirty men. Ten from here, ten from the Shadow Tower, and ten lent to
us by King Stannis.
Slynts face had turned the color of a prune. His meaty jowls began to quiver. Do you think I
cannot see what you are doing? Janos Slynt is not a man to be gulled so easily. I was charged with the
defense of Kings Landing when you were soiling your swaddling clothes. Keep your ruin, bastard.
I am giving you a chance, my lord. It is more than you ever gave my father. You mistake me, my
lord, Jon said. That was a command, not an offer. It is forty leagues to Greyguard. Pack up your arms
and armor, say your farewells, and be ready to depart at first light on the morrow.
No. Lord Janos lurched to his feet, sending his chair crashing over backwards. I will not go
meekly off to freeze and die. No traitors bastard gives commands to Janos Slynt! I am not without
friends, I warn you. Here, and in Kings Landing too. I was the Lord of Harrenhal! Give your ruin to one of
the blind fools who cast a stone for you, I will not have it. Do you hear me, boy? I will not have it!
You will.
Slynt did not deign to answer that, but he kicked the chair aside as he departed.
He still sees me as a boy, Jon thought, a green boy, to be cowed by angry words. He could only
hope that a nights sleep would bring Lord Janos to his senses.
The next morning proved that hope was vain.

Jon found Slynt breaking his fast in the common room. Ser Alliser Thorne was with him, and
several of their cronies. They were laughing about something when Jon came down the steps with Iron
Emmett and Dolorous Edd, and behind them Mully, Horse, Red Jack Crabb, Rusty Flowers, and Owen the
Oaf. Three-Finger Hobb was ladling out porridge from his kettle. Queens men, kings men, and black
brothers sat at their separate tables, some bent over bowls of porridge, others filling their bellies with
fried bread and bacon. Jon saw Pyp and Grenn at one table, Bowen Marsh at another. The air smelled of
smoke and grease, and the clatter of knives and spoons echoed off the vaulted ceiling.
All the voices died at once. Lord Janos, Jon said, I will give you one last chance. Put down that
spoon and get to the stables. I have had your horse saddled and bridled. It is a long, hard road to
Greyguard.
Then you had best be on your way, boy. Slynt laughed, dribbling porridge down his chest.
Greyguards a good place for the likes of you, Im thinking. Well away from decent godly folk. The mark
of the beast is on you, bastard.
You are refusing to obey my order?
You can stick your order up your bastards arse, said Slynt, his jowls quivering.
Alliser Thorne smiled a thin smile, his black eyes fixed on Jon. At another table, Godry the
Giantslayer began to laugh.
As you will. Jon nodded to Iron Emmett. Please take Lord Janos to the Wall
and confine him to an ice cell, he might have said. A day or ten cramped up inside the ice
would leave him shivering and feverish and begging for release, Jon did not doubt. And the moment he is
out, he and Thorne will begin to plot again.
and tie him to his horse, he might have said. If Slynt did not wish to go to Greyguard as its
commander, he could go as its cook. It will only be a matter of time until he deserts, then. And how many
others will he take with him?
and hang him, Jon finished.
Janos Slynts face went as white as milk. The spoon slipped from his fingers. Edd and Emmett
crossed the room, their footsteps ringing on the stone floor. Bowen Marshs mouth opened and closed
though no words came out. Ser Alliser Thorne reached for his sword hilt. Go on, Jon thought. Longclaw
was slung across his back. Show your steel. Give me cause to do the same.
Half the men in the hall were on their feet. Southron knights and men-at-arms, loyal to King
Stannis or the red woman or both, and Sworn Brothers of the Nights Watch. Some had chosen Jon to be
their lord commander. Others had cast their stones for Bowen Marsh, Ser Denys Mal-lister, Cotter Pyke
 and some for Janos Slynt. Hundreds of them, as I recall. Jon wondered how many of those men were
in the cellar right now. For a moment the world balanced on a swords edge.

Alliser Thorne took his hand from his sword and stepped aside to let Edd Tollett pass.
Dolorous Edd took hold of Slynt by one arm, Iron Emmett by the other. Together they hauled
him from the bench. No, Lord Janos protested, flecks of porridge spraying from his lips. No, unhand
me. Hes just a boy, a bastard. His father was a traitor. The mark of the beast is on him, that wolf of his
 Let go of me! You will rue the day you laid hands on Janos Slynt. I have friends in Kings Landing. I
warn you He was still protesting as they half-marched, half-dragged him up the steps.
Jon followed them outside. Behind him, the cellar emptied. At the cage, Slynt wrenched loose
for a moment and tried to make a fight of it, but Iron Emmett caught him by the throat and slammed
him back against the iron bars until he desisted. By then all of Castle Black had come outside to watch.
Even Val was at her window, her long golden braid across one shoulder. Stannis stood on the steps of
the Kings Tower, surrounded by his knights.
If the boy thinks that he can frighten me, he is mistaken, they heard Lord Janos said. He
would not dare to hang me. Janos Slynt has friends, important friends, youll see  The wind whipped
away the rest of his words.
This is wrong, Jon thought. Stop.
Emmett turned back, frowning. My lord?
I will not hang him, said Jon. Bring him here.
Oh, Seven save us, he heard Bowen Marsh cry out.
The smile that Lord Janos Slynt smiled then had all the sweetness of rancid butter. Until Jon said,
Edd, fetch me a block, and unsheathed Longclaw.
By the time a suitable chopping block was found, Lord Janos had retreated into the winch cage,
but Iron Emmett went in after him and dragged him out. No, Slynt cried, as Emmett half-shoved and
half-pulled him across the yard. Unhand me  you cannot  when Tywin Lannister hears of this, you
will all rue
Emmett kicked his legs out from under him. Dolorous Edd planted a foot on his back to keep him
on his knees as Emmett shoved the block beneath his head. This will go easier if you stay still, Jon
Snow promised him. Move to avoid the cut, and you will still die, but your dying will be uglier. Stretch
out your neck, my lord. The pale morning sunlight ran up and down his blade as Jon clasped the hilt of
the bastard sword with both hands and raised it high. If you have any last words, now is the time to
speak them, he said, expecting one last curse.
Janos Slynt twisted his neck around to stare up at him. Please, my lord. Mercy. Ill  Ill go, I
will, I 

No, thought Jon. You closed that door. Longclaw descended. Can I have his boots? asked Owen
the Oaf, as Janos Slynts head went rolling across the muddy ground. Theyre almost new, those boots.
Lined with fur.
Jon glanced back at Stannis. For an instant their eyes met. Then the king nodded and went back
inside his tower.
TYRION
He woke alone, and found the litter halted.
A pile of crushed cushions remained to show where Illyrio had sprawled. The dwarfs throat felt
dry and raspy. He had dreamed  what had he dreamed? He did not remember.
Outside, voices were speaking in a tongue he did not know. Tyrion swung his legs through the
curtains and hopped to the ground, to find Magister Illyrio standing by the horses with two riders
looming over him. Both wore shirts of worn leather beneath cloaks of dark brown wool, but their swords
were sheathed and the fat man did not look to be in danger.
I need a piss, the dwarf announced. He waddled off the road, undid his breeches, and relieved
himself into a tangle of thorns. It took quite a long time.
He pisses well, at least, a voice observed.
Tyrion flicked the last drops off and tucked himself away. Pissing is the least of my talents. You
ought to see me shit. He turned to Magister Illyrio. Are these two known to you, magister? They look
like outlaws. Should I find my axe?
Your axe? exclaimed the larger of the riders, a brawny man with a shaggy beard and a shock of
orange hair. Did you hear that, Haldon? The little man wants to fight with us!
His companion was older, clean-shaved, with a lined ascetic face. His hair had been pulled back
and tied in a knot behind his head. Small men oft feel a need to prove their courage with unseemly
boasts, he declared. I doubt if he could kill a duck.
Tyrion shrugged. Fetch the duck.
If you insist. The rider glanced at his companion.
The brawny man unsheathed a bastard sword. Im Duck, you mouthy little pisspot.
Oh, gods be good. I had a smaller duck in mind.
The big man roared with laughter. Did you hear, Haldon? He wants a smaller Duck!

I should gladly settle for a quieter one. The man called Haldon studied Tyrion with cool grey
eyes before turning back to Illyrio. You have some chests for us?
And mules to carry them.
Mules are too slow. We have pack horses, well shift the chests to them. Duck, attend to that.
Why is it always Duck who attends to things? The big man slipped his sword back in its sheath.
What do you attend to, Haldon? Who is the knight here, you or me? Yet he stomped off toward the
baggage mules all the same.
How fares our lad? asked Illyrio as the chests were being secured. Tyrion counted six, oaken
chests with iron hasps. Duck shifted them easily enough, hoisting them on one shoulder.
He is as tall as Griff now. Three days ago he knocked Duck into a horse trough.
I wasnt knocked. I fell in just to make him laugh.
Your ploy was a success, said Haldon. I laughed myself.
There is a gift for the boy in one of the chests. Some candied ginger. He was always fond of it.
Illyrio sounded oddly sad. I thought I might continue on to Ghoyan Drohe with you. A farewell feast
before you start downriver 
We have no time for feasts, my lord, said Haldon. Griff means to strike downriver the instant
we are back. News has been coming upriver, none of it good. Dothraki have been seen north of Dagger
Lake, outriders from old Mothos khalasar, and Khal Zekko is not far behind him, moving through the
Forest of Qohor.
The fat man made a rude noise. Zekko visits Qohor every three or four years. The Qohorik give
him a sack of gold and he turns east again. As for Motho, his men are near as old as he is, and there are
fewer every year. The threat is
Khal Pono, Haldon finished. Motho and Zekko flee from him, if the tales are true. The last
reports had Pono near the headwaters of the Selhoru with a khalasar of thirty thousand. Griff does not
want to risk being caught up in the crossing if Pono should decide to risk the Rhoyne. Haldon glanced at
Tyrion. Does your dwarf ride as well as he pisses?
He rides, Tyrion broke in, before the lord of cheese could answer for him, though he rides
best with a special saddle and a horse that he knows well. He talks as well.
So he does. I am Haldon, the healer in our little band of brothers. Some call me Halfmaester.
My companion is Ser Duck.
Ser Rolly, said the big man. Rolly Duckfield. Any knight can make a knight, and Griff made me.
And you, dwarf?

Illyrio spoke up quickly. Yollo, he is called.
Yollo? Yollo sounds like something you might name a monkey. Worse, it was a Pentoshi name,
and any fool could see that Tyrion was no Pentoshi. In Pentos I am Yollo, he said quickly, to make what
amends he could, but my mother named me Hugor Hill.
Are you a little king or a little bastard? asked Haldon.
Tyrion realized he would do well to be careful around Haldon Half-maester. Every dwarf is a
bastard in his fathers eyes.
No doubt. Well, Hugor Hill, answer me this. How did Serwyn of the Mirror Shield slay the
dragon Urrax?
He approached behind his shield. Urrax saw only his own reflection until Serwyn had plunged
his spear through his eye.
Haldon was unimpressed. Even Duck knows that tale. Can you tell me the name of the knight
who tried the same ploy with Vhagar during the Dance of the Dragons?
Tyrion grinned. Ser Byron Swann. He was roasted for his trouble  only the dragon was Syrax,
not Vhagar.
I fear that youre mistaken. In The Dance of the Dragons, A True Telling, Maester Munkun
writes
that it was Vhagar. Grand Maester Munkun errs. Ser Byrons squire saw his master die, and
wrote his daughter of the manner of it. His account says it was Syrax, Rhaenyras she-dragon, which
makes more sense than Munkens version. Swann was the son of a marcher lord, and Storms End was
for Aegon. Vhagar was ridden by Prince Aemond, Aegons brother. Why should Swann want to slay
her?
Haldon pursed his lips. Try not to tumble off the horse. If you do, best waddle back to Pentos.
Our shy maid will not wait for man nor dwarf.
Shy maids are my favorite sort. Aside from wanton ones. Tell me, where do whores go?
Do I look like a man who frequents whores?
Duck laughed derisively. He dont dare. Lemore would make him pray for pardon, the lad would
want to come along, and Griff might cut his cock off and stuff it down his throat.
Well, said Tyrion, a maester does not need a cock.
Haldons only half a maester, though.

You seem to find the dwarf amusing, Duck, said Haldon. He can ride with you. He wheeled
his mount about.
It took another few moments for Duck to finish securing Illyrios chests to the three pack horses.
By that time Haldon had vanished. Duck seemed unconcerned. He swung into the saddle, grabbed
Tyrion by the collar, and hoisted the little man up in front of him. Hold tight to the pommel and youll
do fine. The mares got a nice sweet gait, and the dragon roads smooth as a maidens arse. Gathering
the reins in his right hand and the leads in his left, Ser Rolly set off at a brisk trot.
Good fortune, Illyrio called after them. Tell the boy I am sorry that I will not be with him for
his wedding. I will rejoin you in Westeros. That I swear, by my sweet Serras hands.
The last that Tyrion Lannister saw of Illyrio Mopatis, the magister was standing by his litter in his
brocade robes, his massive shoulders slumped. As his figure dwindled in their dust, the lord of cheese
looked almost small.
Duck caught up with Haldon Halfmaester a quarter mile on. Thereafter the riders continued side
by side. Tyrion clung to the high pommel with his short legs splayed out awkwardly, knowing he could
look forward to blisters, cramps, and saddle sores.
I wonder what the pirates of Dagger Lake will make of our dwarf? Haldon said as they rode on.
Dwarf stew? suggested Duck. Urho the Unwashed is the worst of them, Haldon confided.
His stench alone is enough to kill a man.
Tyrion shrugged. Fortunately, I have no nose.
Haldon gave him a thin smile. If we should encounter the Lady Korra on Hags Teeth, you may
soon be lacking other parts as well. Korra the Cruel, they call her. Her ship is crewed by beautiful young
maids who geld every male they capture.
Terrifying. I may well piss my breeches.
Best not, Duck warned darkly. As you say. If we encounter this Lady Korra, I will just slip into
a skirt and say that I am Cersei, the famous bearded beauty of Kings Landing.
This time Duck laughed, and Haldon said, What a droll little fellow you are, Yollo. They say that
the Shrouded Lord will grant a boon to any man who can make him laugh. Perhaps His Grey Grace will
choose you to ornament his stony court.
Duck glanced at his companion uneasily. Its not good to jape of that one, not when were so
near the Rhoyne. He hears.
Wisdom from a duck, said Haldon. I beg your pardon, Yollo. You need not look so pale, I was
only playing with you. The Prince of Sorrows does not bestow his grey kiss lightly.

His grey kiss. The thought made his flesh crawl. Death had lost its terror for Tyrion Lannister, but
greyscale was another matter. The Shrouded Lord is just a legend, he told himself, no more real than the
ghost of Lann the Clever that some claim haunts Casterly Rock. Even so, he held his tongue.
The dwarfs sudden silence went unnoticed, as Duck had begun to regale him with his own life
story. His father had been an armorer at Bitterbridge, he said, so he had been born with the sound of
steel ringing in his ears and had taken to swordplay at an early age. Such a large and likely lad drew the
eye of old Lord Caswell, who offered him a place in his garrison, but the boy had wanted more. He
watched Caswells weakling son named a page, a squire, and finally a knight. A weedy pinch-faced
sneak, he was, but the old lord had four daughters and only the one son, so no one was allowed to say a
word against him. Tother squires hardly dared to lay a finger on him in the yard.
You were not so timid, though. Tyrion could see where this tale was going easily enough.
My father made a longsword for me to mark my sixteenth nameday, said Duck, but Lorent
liked the look of it so much he took it for himself, and my bloody father never dared to tell him no.
When I complained, Lorent told me to my face that my hand was made to hold a hammer, not a sword.
So I went and got a hammer and beat him with it, till both his arms and half his ribs were broken. After
that I had to leave the Reach, quick as it were. I made it across the water to the Golden Company. I did
some smithing for a few years as a prentice, then Ser Harry Strickland took me on as squire. When Griff
sent word downriver that he needed someone to help train his son to arms, Harry sent him me.
And Griff knighted you?
A year later.
Haldon Halfmaester smiled a thin smile. Tell our little friend how you came by your name, why
dont you?
A knight needs more than just the one name, the big man insisted,
and, well, we were in a field when he dubbed me, and I looked up and saw these ducks, so 
dont laugh, now.
Just after sunset, they left the road to rest in an overgrown yard beside an old stone well. Tyrion
hopped down to work the cramps out of his calves whilst Duck and Haldon were watering the horses.
Tough brown grass and weed trees sprouted from the gaps between the cobbles, and the mossy walls of
what once might have been a huge stone manse. After the animals had been tended to, the riders
shared a simple supper of salt pork and cold white beans, washed down with ale. Tyrion found the plain
fare a pleasant change from all the rich food he had eaten with Illyrio. Those chests we brought you,
he said as they were chewing. Gold for the Golden Company, I thought at first, until I saw Ser Rolly
hoist a chest onto one shoulder. If it were full of coin, he could never have lifted it so easily.

Its just armor, said Duck, with a shrug. Clothing as well, Haldon broke in. Court clothes, for
all our party. Fine woolens, velvets, silken cloaks. One does not come before a queen looking shabby 
nor empty-handed. The magister has been kind enough to provide us with suitable gifts.
Come moonrise, they were back in their saddles, trotting eastward under a mantle of stars. The
old Valyrian road glimmered ahead of them like a long silver ribbon winding through wood and dale. For
a little while Tyrion Lannister felt almost at peace. Lomas Longstrider told it true. The roads a wonder.
Lomas Longstrider? asked Duck. A scribe, long dead, said Haldon. He spent his life traveling
the world and writing about the lands he visited in two books he called Wonders and Wonders Made by
Man.
An uncle of mine gave them to me when I was just a boy, said Tyrion. I read them until they
fell to pieces.
The gods made seven wonders, and mortal man made nine, quoted the Halfmaester. Rather
impious of mortal man to do the gods two better, but there you are. The stone roads of Valyria were
one of Longstriders nine. The fifth, I believe.
The fourth, said Tyrion, who had committed all sixteen of the wonders to memory as a boy.
His uncle Gerion liked to set him on the table during feasts and make him recite them. I liked that well
enough, didnt I? Standing there amongst the trenchers with every eye upon me, proving what a clever
little imp I was. For years afterward, he had cherished a dream that one day he would travel the world
and see Longstriders wonders for himself.
Lord Tywin had put an end to that hope ten days before his dwarf sons sixteenth nameday,
when Tyrion asked to tour the Nine Free Cities, as his uncles had done at that same age. My brothers
could be relied upon to bring no shame upon House Lannister, his father had replied. Neither ever
wed a whore. And when Tyrion had reminded him that in ten days he would be a man grown, free to
travel where he wished, Lord Tywin had said, No man is free. Only children and fools think elsewise.
Go, by all means. Wear motley and stand upon your head to amuse the spice lords and the cheese kings.
Just see that you pay your own way and put aside any thoughts of returning. At that the boys defiance
had crumbled. If it is useful occupation you require, useful occupation you shall have, his father then
said. So to mark his manhood, Tyrion was given charge of all the drains and cisterns within Casterly
Rock. Perhaps he hoped Id fall into one. But Tywin had been disappointed in that. The drains never
drained half so well as when he had charge of them.
I need a cup of wine, to wash the taste of Tywin from my mouth. A skin of wine would serve me
even better.
They rode all night, with Tyrion sleeping fitfully, dozing against the pommel and waking
suddenly. From time to time he would begin to slip sideways from the saddle, but Ser Rolly would get a
hand on him and yank him upright once again. By dawn the dwarfs legs were aching and his cheeks
were chafed and raw.

It was the next day before they reached the site of Ghoyan Drohe, hard beside the river. The
fabled Rhoyne, said Tyrion when he glimpsed the slow green waterway from atop a rise.
The Little Rhoyne, said Duck.
It is that. A pleasant enough river, I suppose, but the smallest fork of the Trident is twice as
wide, and all three of them run swifter. The city was no more impressive. Ghoyan Drohe had never been
large, Tyrion recalled from his histories, but it had been a fair place, green and flowering, a city of canals
and fountains. Until the war. Until the dragons came. A thousand years later, the canals were choked
with reeds and mud, and pools of stagnant water gave birth to swarms of flies. The broken stones of
temples and palaces were sinking back into the earth, and gnarled old willows grew thick along the
riverbanks.
A few people still remained amidst the squalor, tending little gardens in amongst the weeds. The
sound of iron hooves ringing on the old Valyrian road sent most of them darting back into the holes
theyd crawled from, but the bolder ones lingered in the sun long enough to stare at the passing riders
with dull, incurious eyes. One naked girl with mud up to her knees could not seem to take her eyes off
Tyrion. She has never seen a dwarf before, he realized, much less a dwarf without a nose. He made a
face and stuck his tongue out, and the girl began to cry.
What did you do to her? Duck asked.
I blew her a kiss. All the girls cry when I kiss them.
Beyond the tangled willows the road ended abruptly and they turned north for a short ways and
rode beside the water, until the brush gave way and they found themselves beside an old stone quay,
half-submerged and surrounded by tall brown weeds. Duck! came a shout. Haldon! Tyrion craned
his head to one side, and saw a boy standing on the roof of a low wooden building, waving a
wide-brimmed straw hat. He was a lithe and well-made youth, with a lanky build and a shock of dark
blue hair. The dwarf put his age at fifteen, sixteen, or near enough to make no matter.
The roof the boy was standing on turned out to be the cabin of the Shy Maid, an old ramshackle
single-masted poleboat. She had a broad beam and a shallow draft, ideal for making her way up the
smallest of streams and crabwalking over sandbars. A homely maid, thought Tyrion, but sometimes the
ugliest ones are the hungriest once abed. The poleboats that plied the rivers of Dorne were often
brightly painted and exquisitely carved, but not this maid. Her paintwork was a muddy greyish brown,
mottled and flaking; her big curved tiller, plain and unadorned. She looks like dirt, he thought, but no
doubt thats the point.
Duck was hallooing back by then. The mare splashed through the shallows, trampling down the
reeds. The boy leapt down off the cabin roof to the poleboats deck, and the rest of the Shy Maids crew
made their appearance. An older couple with a Rhoynish cast to their features stood close beside the
tiller, whilst a handsome septa in a soft white robe stepped through the cabin door and pushed a lock of
dark brown hair from her eyes.

But there was no mistaking Griff. That will be enough shouting, he said. A sudden silence fell
upon the river.
This one will be trouble, Tyrion knew at once.
Griffs cloak was made from the hide and head of a red wolf of the Rhoyne. Under the pelt he
wore brown leather stiffened with iron rings. His clean-shaved face was leathery too, with wrinkles at
the corners of his eyes. Though his hair was as blue as his sons, he had red roots and redder eyebrows.
At his hip hung a sword and dagger. If he was happy to have Duck and Haldon back again, he hid it well,
but he did not trouble to conceal his displeasure at the sight of Tyrion. A dwarf? Whats this?
I know, you were hoping for a wheel of cheese. Tyrion turned to Young Griff and gave the lad
his most disarming smile. Blue hair may serve you well in Tyrosh, but in Westeros children will throw
stones at you and girls will laugh in your face.
The lad was taken aback. My mother was a lady of Tyrosh. I dye my hair in memory of her.
What is this creature? Griff demanded.
Haldon answered. Illyrio sent a letter to explain.
I will have it, then. Take the dwarf to my cabin.
I do not like his eyes, Tyrion reflected, when the sellsword sat down across from him in the
dimness of the boats interior, with a scarred plank table and a tallow candle between them. They were
ice blue, pale, cold. The dwarf misliked pale eyes. Lord Tywins eyes had been pale green and flecked
with gold.
He watched the sellsword read. That he could read said something all by itself. How many
sellswords could boast of that? He hardly moves his lips at all, Tyrion reflected.
Finally Griff looked up from the parchment, and those pale eyes narrowed. Tywin Lannister
dead? At your hand?
At my finger. This one. Tyrion held it up for Griff to admire. Lord Tywin was sitting on a privy,
so I put a crossbow bolt through his bowels to see if he really did shit gold. He didnt. A pity, I could have
used some gold. I also slew my mother, somewhat earlier. Oh, and my nephew Jof-frey, I poisoned him
at his wedding feast and watched him choke to death. Did the cheesemonger leave that part out? I
mean to add my brother and sister to the list before Im done, if it please your queen.
Please her? Has Illyrio taken leave of his senses? Why does he imagine that Her Grace would
welcome the service of a self-confessed kingslayer and betrayer?
A fair question, thought Tyrion, but what he said was, The king I slew was sitting on her throne,
and all those I betrayed were lions, so it seems to me that I have already done the queen good service.

He scratched the stump of his nose. Have no fear, I wont kill you, you are no kin of mine. Might I see
what the cheesemonger wrote? I do love to read about myself.
Griff ignored the request. Instead he touched the letter to the candle flame and watched the
parchment blacken, curl, and flare up. There is blood between Targaryen and Lannister. Why would you
support the cause of Queen Daenerys?
For gold and glory, the dwarf said cheerfully. Oh, and hate. If you had ever met my sister, you
would understand.
I understand hate well enough. From the way Griff said the word, Tyrion knew that much was
true. He has supped on hate himself, this one. It has warmed him in the night for years.
Then we have that in common, ser.
I am no knight.
Not only a liar, but a bad one. That was clumsy and stupid, my lord. And yet Ser Duck says you
knighted him.
Duck talks too much.
Some might wonder that a duck can talk at all. No matter, Griff. You are no knight and I am
Hugor Hill, a little monster. Your little monster, if you like. You have my word, all that I desire is to be leal
servant of your dragon queen.
And how do you propose to serve her?
With my tongue. He licked his fingers, one by one. I can tell Her Grace how my sweet sister
thinks, if you call it thinking. I can tell her captains the best way to defeat my brother, Jaime, in battle. I
know which lords are brave and which are craven, which are loyal and which are venal. I can deliver
allies to her. And I know much and more of dragons, as your halfmaester will tell you. Im amusing too,
and I dont eat much. Consider me your own true imp.
Griff weighed that for a moment. Understand this, dwarf. You are the last and least of our
company. Hold your tongue and do as you are told, or you will soon wish you had.
Yes, Father, Tyrion almost said. As you say, my lord.
I am no lord.
Liar. It was a courtesy, my friend.
I am not your friend either.
No knight, no lord, no friend. A pity.

Spare me your irony. I will take you as far as Volantis. If you show yourself to be obedient and
useful, you may remain with us, to serve the queen as best you can. Prove yourself more trouble than
you are worth, and you can go your own way.
Aye, and my way will take me to the bottom of the Rhoyne with fish nibbling at whats left of my
nose. Valar dohaeris.
You may sleep on the deck or in the hold, as you prefer. Ysilla will find bedding for you.
How kind of her. Tyrion made a waddling bow, but at the cabin door, he turned back. What if
we should find the queen and discover that this talk of dragons was just some sailors drunken fancy?
This wide world is full of such mad tales. Grumkins and snarks, ghosts and ghouls, mermaids, rock
goblins, winged horses, winged pigs  winged lions.
Griff stared at him, frowning. I have given you fair warning, Lannister. Guard your tongue or
lose it. Kingdoms are at hazard here. Our lives, our names, our honor. This is no game were playing for
your amusement.
Of course it is, thought Tyrion. The game of thrones. As you say, Captain, he murmured,
bowing once again.
DAVOS
Lightning split the northern sky, etching the black tower of the Night Lamp against the
blue-white sky. Six heartbeats later came the thunder, like a distant drum.
The guards marched Davos Seaworth across a bridge of black basalt and under an iron portcullis
showing signs of rust. Beyond lay a deep salt moat and a drawbridge supported by a pair of massive
chains. Green waters surged below, sending up plumes of spray to smash against the foundations of the
castle. Then came a second gatehouse, larger than the first, its stones bearded with green algae. Davos
stumbled across a muddy yard with his hands bound at the wrists. A cold rain stung his eyes. The guards
prodded him up the steps, into Breakwaters cavernous stone keep.
Once inside, the captain removed his cloak and hung it from a peg, so as not to leave puddles on
the threadbare Myrish carpet. Davos did the same, fumbling at the clasp with his bound hands. He had
not forgotten the courtesies he had learned on Dragonstone during his years of service.
They found the lord alone in the gloom of his hall, making a supper of beer and bread and
sisters stew. Twenty iron sconces were mounted along his thick stone walls, but only four held torches,
and none of them was lit. Two fat tallow candles gave a meagre, flickering light. Davos could hear the
rain lashing at the walls, and a steady dripping where the roof had sprung a leak.

Mlord, said the captain, we found this man in the Belly o the Whale, trying to buy his way
off island. He had twelve dragons on him, and this thing too. The captain put it on the table by the lord:
a wide ribbon of black velvet trimmed with cloth-of-gold, and bearing three seals; a crowned stag
stamped in golden beeswax, a flaming heart in red, a hand in white.
Davos waited wet and dripping, his wrists chafing where the wet rope dug into his skin. One
word from this lord and he would soon be hanging from the Gallows Gate of Sisterton, but at least he
was out of the rain, with solid stone beneath his feet in place of a heaving deck. He was soaked and sore
and haggard, worn thin by grief and betrayal, and sick to death of storms.
The lord wiped his mouth with the back of his hand and picked up the ribbon for a closer squint.
Lightning flashed outside, making the arrow loops blaze blue and white for half a heartbeat. One, two,
three, four, Davos counted, before the thunder came. When it quieted, he listened to the dripping, and
the duller roar beneath his feet, where the waves were smashing against Breakwaters huge stone
arches and swirling through its dungeons. He might well end up down there, fettered to a wet stone
floor and left to drown when the tide came rushing in. No, he tried to tell himself, a smuggler might die
that way, but not a Kings Hand. Im worth more if he sells me to his queen.
The lord fingered the ribbon, frowning at the seals. He was an ugly man, big and fleshy, with an
oarsmans thick shoulders and no neck. Coarse grey stubble, going white in patches, covered his cheeks
and chin. Above a massive shelf of brow he was bald. His nose was lumpy and red with broken veins, his
lips thick, and he had a sort of webbing between the three middle fingers of his right hand. Davos had
heard that some of the lords of the Three Sisters had webbed hands and feet, but he had always put
that down as just another sailors story.
The lord leaned back. Cut him free, he said, and peel those gloves off him. I want to see his
hands.
The captain did as he was told. As he jerked up his captives maimed left hand the lightning
flashed again, throwing the shadow of Davos Seaworths shortened fingers across the blunt and brutal
face of Godric Borrell, Lord of Sweetsister. Any man can steal a ribbon, the lord said, but those
fingers do not lie. You are the onion knight.
I have been called that, my lord. Davos was a lord himself, and had been a knight for long
years now, but deep down he was still what he had always been, a smuggler of common birth who had
bought his knighthood with a hold of onions and salt fish. I have been called worse things too.
Aye. Traitor. Rebel. Turncloak.
He bristled at the last. I have never turned my cloak, my lord. I am a kings man.
Only if Stannis is a king. The lord weighed him with hard black eyes. Most knights who land
upon my shores seek me in my hall, not in the Belly of the Whale. A vile smugglers den, that place. Are
you returning to your old trade, onion knight?

No, my lord. I was looking for passage to White Harbor. The king sent me, with a message for
its lord.
Then you are in the wrong place, with the wrong lord. Lord Godric seemed amused. This is
Sisterton, on Sweetsister.
I know it is. There was nothing sweet about Sisterton, though. It was a vile town, a sty, small
and mean and rank with the odors of pig shit and rotting fish. Davos remembered it well from his
smuggling days. The Three Sisters had been a favorite haunt of smugglers for hundreds of years, and a
pirates nest before that. Sistertons streets were mud and planks, its houses daub -and-wattle hovels
roofed with straw, and by the Gallows Gate there were always hanged men with their entrails dangling
out.
You have friends here, I do not doubt, said the lord. Every smuggler has friends on the
Sisters. Some of them are my friends as well. The ones who arent, them I hang. I let them strangle
slowly, with their guts slapping up against their knees. The hall grew bright again, as lightning lit the
windows. Two heartbeats later came the thunder. If it is White Harbor that you want, why are you in
Sisterton? What brought you here?
A kings command and a friends betrayal, Davos might have said. Instead he answered,
Storms.
Nine-and-twenty ships had set sail from the Wall. If half of them were still afloat, Davos would
be shocked. Black skies, bitter winds, and lashing rains had hounded them all the way down the coast.
The galleys Oledo and Old Mothers Son had been driven onto the rocks of Skagos, the isle of unicorns
and cannibals where even the Blind Bastard had feared to land; the great cog Saathos Saan had
foundered off the Grey Cliffs. Stannis will be paying for them, Salladhor Saan had fumed. He will be
paying for them with good gold, every one. It was as if some angry god was exacting payment for their
easy voyage north, when they had ridden a steady southerly from Dragonstone to the Wall. Another
gale had ripped away the rigging of the Bountiful Harvest, forcing Salla to have her taken under tow. Ten
leagues north of Widows Watch the seas rose again, slamming the Harvest into one of the galleys
towing her and sinking both. The rest of the Lysene fleet had been scattered across the narrow sea.
Some would straggle into one port or another. Others would never be seen again.
Salladhor the Beggar, thats what your king has made me, Salladhor Saan complained to
Davos, as the remnants of his fleet limped across the Bite. Salladhor the Smashed. Where are my ships?
And my gold, where is all the gold that I was promised? When Davos had tried to assure him that he
would have his payment, Salla had erupted. When, when? On the morrow, on the new moon, when the
red comet comes again? He is promising me gold and gems, always promising, but this gold I have not
seen. I have his word, he is saying, oh yes, his royal word, he writes it down. Can Salladhor Saan eat the
kings word? Can he quench his thirst with parchments and waxy seals? Can he tumble promises into a
feather bed and fuck them till they squeal?

Davos had tried to persuade him to stay true. If Salla abandoned Stannis and his cause, he
pointed out, he abandoned all hope of collecting the gold that was due him. A victorious King Tommen
was not like to pay his defeated uncles debts, after all. Sallas only hope was to remain loyal to Stannis
Baratheon until he won the Iron Throne. Elsewise he would never see a groat of his money. He had to be
patient.
Perhaps some lord with honey on his tongue might have swayed the Lysene pirate prince, but
Davos was an onion knight, and his words had only provoked Salla to fresh outrage. On Dragonstone I
was patient, he said, when the red woman burned wooden gods and screaming men. All the long way
to the Wall I was patient. At Eastwatch I was patient  and cold, so very cold. Bah, I say. Bah to your
patience, and bah to your king. My men are hungry. They are wishing to fuck their wives again, to count
their sons, to see the Stepstones and the pleasure gardens of Lys. Ice and storms and empty promises,
these they are not wanting. This north is much too cold, and getting colder.
I knew the day would come, Davos told himself. I was fond of the old rogue, but never so great a
fool as to trust him.
Storms. Lord Godric said the word as fondly as another man might say his lovers name.
Storms were sacred on the Sisters before the Andals came. Our gods of old were the Lady of the Waves
and the Lord of the Skies. They made storms every time they mated. He leaned forward. These kings
never bother with the Sisters. Why should they? We are small and poor. And yet youre here. Delivered
to me by the storms.
Delivered to you by a friend, Davos thought.
Lord Godric turned to his captain. Leave this man with me. He was never here.
No, mlord. Never. The captain took his leave, his wet boots leaving damp footprints across
the carpet. Beneath the floor the sea was rumbling and restless, pounding at the castles feet. The outer
door closed with a sound like distant thunder, and again the lightning came, as if in answer.
My lord, said Davos, if you would send me on to White Harbor, His Grace would count it as
an act of friendship.
I could send you to White Harbor, the lord allowed. Or I could send you to some cold wet
hell.
Sisterton is hell enough. Davos feared the worst. The Three Sisters were fickle bitches, loyal only
to themselves. Supposedly they were sworn to the Arryns of the Vale, but the Eyries grasp upon the
islands was tenuous at best.
Sunderland would require me to hand you over if he knew of you. Borrell did fealty for
Sweetsister, as Longthorpe did for Longsister and Torrent for Littlesister; all were sworn to Triston
Sunderland, the Lord of the Three Sisters. Hed sell you to the queen for a pot of that Lannister gold.
Poor man needs every dragon, with seven sons all determined to be knights. The lord picked up a

wooden spoon and attacked his stew again. I used to curse the gods who gave me only daughters until I
heard Triston bemoaning the cost of destriers. You would be surprised to know how many fish it takes
to buy a decent suit of plate and mail.
I had seven sons as well, but four are burned and dead. Lord Sunderland is sworn to the Eyrie,
Davos said. By rights he should deliver me to Lady Arryn. He would stand a better chance with her
than with the Lannisters, he judged. Though she had taken no part in the War of the Five Kings, Lysa
Arryn was a daughter of Riverrun, and aunt to the Young Wolf.
Lysa Arryns dead, Lord Godric said, murdered by some singer. Lord Littlefinger rules the Vale
now. Where are the pirates? When Davos did not answer, he rapped his spoon against the table. The
Lyseni. Torrent spied their sails from Littlesister, and before him the Flints from Widows Watch. Orange
sails, and green, and pink. Salladhor Saan. Where is he?
At sea. Salla would be sailing around the Fingers and down the narrow sea. He was returning
to the Stepstones with what few ships remained him. Perhaps he would acquire a few more along the
way, if he came upon some likely merchantmen. A little piracy to help the leagues go by. His Grace has
sent him south, to trouble the Lannisters and their friends. The lie was one he had rehearsed as he
rowed toward Sisterton through the rain. Soon or late the world would learn that Salladhor Saan had
abandoned Stannis Baratheon, leaving him without a fleet, but they would not hear it from the lips of
Davos Seaworth.
Lord Godric stirred his stew. Did that old pirate Saan make you swim to shore?
I came ashore in an open boat, my lord. Salla had waited until the beacon of the Night Lamp
shone off the Valyrians port bow before he put him off. Their friendship had been worth that much, at
least. The Lyseni would gladly have taken him south with him, he avowed, but Davos had refused.
Stannis needed Wyman Manderly, and had trusted Davos to win him. He would not betray that trust, he
told Salla. Bah, the pirate prince replied, he will kill you with these honors, old friend. He will kill
you.
I have never had a Kings Hand beneath my roof before, Lord Godric said. Would Stannis
ransom you, I wonder?
Would he? Stannis had given Davos lands and titles and offices, but would he pay good gold to
buy back his life? He has no gold. Else hed still have Salla. You will find His Grace at Castle Black if my
lord would like to ask that of him.
Borrell grunted. Is the Imp at Castle Black as well?
The Imp? Davos did not understand the question. He is at Kings Landing, condemned to die
for the murder of his nephew.

The Wall is the last to learn, my father used to say. The dwarfs escaped. He twisted through
the bars of his cell and tore his own father apart with his bare hands. A guardsman saw him flee, red
from head to heel, as if hed bathed in blood. The queen will make a lord of any man who kills him.
Davos struggled to believe what he was hearing. You are telling me that Tywin Lannister is
dead?
At his sons hand, aye. The lord took a drink of beer. When there were kings on the Sisters,
we did not suffer dwarfs to live. We cast them all into the sea, as an offering to the gods. The septons
made us stop that. A pack of pious fools. Why would the gods give a man such a shape but to mark him
as a monster?
Lord Tywin dead. This changes all. My lord, will you grant me leave to send a raven to the Wall?
His Grace will want to know of Lord Tywins death.
Hell know. But not from me. Nor you, so long as you are here beneath my leaky roof. Ill not
have it said that I gave Stannis aid and counsel. The Sunderlands dragged the Sisters into two of the
Blackfyre Rebellions, and we all suffered grievously for that. Lord Godric waved his spoon toward a
chair. Sit. Before you fall, ser. My hall is cold and damp and dark, but not without some courtesy. Well
find dry clothes for you, but first youll eat. He shouted, and a woman entered the hall. We have a
guest to feed. Bring beer and bread and sisters stew.
The beer was brown, the bread black, the stew a creamy white. She served it in a trencher
hollowed out of a stale loaf. It was thick with leeks, carrots, barley, and turnips white and yellow, along
with clams and chunks of cod and crabmeat, swimming in a stock of heavy cream and butter. It was the
sort of stew that warmed a man right down to his bones, just the thing for a wet, cold night. Davos
spooned it up gratefully.
You have tasted sisters stew before?
I have, my lord. The same stew was served all over the Three Sisters, in every inn and tavern.
This is better than what youve had before. Gella makes it. My daughters daughter. Are you
married, onion knight?
I am, my lord.
A pity. Gellas not. Homely women make the best wives. Theres three kinds of crabs in there.
Red crabs and spider crabs and conquerors. I wont eat spider crab, except in sisters stew. Makes me
feel half a cannibal. His lordship gestured at the banner hanging above the cold black hearth. A spider
crab was embroidered there, white on a grey-green field. We heard tales that Stannis burned his
Hand.
The Hand who went before me. Melisandre had given Alester Florent to her god on
Dragonstone, to conjure up the wind that bore them north. Lord Florent had been strong and silent as

the queens men bound him to the post, as dignified as any half-naked man could hope to be, but as the
flames licked up his legs he had begun to scream, and his screams had blown them all the way to
Eastwatch-by-the-Sea, if the red woman could be believed. Davos had misliked that wind. It had seemed
to him to smell of burning flesh, and the sound of it was anguished as it played amongst the lines. It
could as easily have been me. I did not burn, he assured Lord Godric, though Eastwatch almost froze
me.
The Wall will do that. The woman brought them a fresh loaf of bread, still hot from the oven.
When Davos saw her hand, he stared. Lord Godric did not fail to make note of it. Aye, she has the mark.
Like all Borrells, for five thousand years. My daughters daughter. Not the one who makes the stew. He
tore the bread apart and offered half to Davos. Eat. Its good.
It was, though any stale crust would have tasted just as fine to Davos; it meant he was a guest
here, for this one night at least. The lords of the Three Sisters had a black repute, and none more so
than Godric Borrell, Lord of Sweetsister, Shield of Sisterton, Master of Breakwater Castle, and Keeper of
the Night Lamp  but even robber lords and wreckers were bound by the ancient laws of hospitality. I
will see the dawn, at least, Davos told himself. I have eaten of his bread and salt.
Though there were stranger spices than salt in this sisters stew. Is it saffron that Im tasting?
Saffron was worth more than gold. Davos had only tasted it once before, when King Robert had sent a
half a fish to him at a feast on Dragonstone.
Aye. From Qarth. Theres pepper too. Lord Godric took a pinch between his thumb and
forefinger and sprinkled his own trencher. Cracked black pepper from Volantis, nothing finer. Take as
much as you require if youre feeling peppery. Ive got forty chests of it. Not to mention cloves and
nutmeg, and a pound of saffron. Took it off a sloe-eyed maid. He laughed. He still had all his teeth,
Davos saw, though most of them were yellow and one on the top was black and dead. She was making
for Braavos, but a gale swept her into the Bite and she smashed up against some of my rocks. So you
see, you are not the only gift the storms have brought me. The seas a treacherous cruel thing.
Not as treacherous as men, thought Davos. Lord Godrics forebears had been pirate kings until
the Starks came down on them with fire and sword. These days the Sistermen left open piracy to
Salladhor Saan and his ilk and confined themselves to wrecking. The beacons that burned along the
shores of the Three Sisters were supposed to warn of shoals and reefs and rocks and lead the way to
safety, but on stormy nights and foggy ones, some Sistermen would use false lights to draw unwary
captains to their doom.
The storms did you a kindness, blowing you to my door, Lord Godric said. Youd have found a
cold welcome in White Harbor. You come too late, ser. Lord Wyman means to bend his knee, and not to
Stannis. He took a swallow of his beer. The Manderlys are no northmen, not down deep. Twas no
more than nine hundred years ago when they came north, laden down with all their gold and gods.
Theyd been great lords on the Mander until they overreached themselves and the green hands slapped
them down. The wolf king took their gold, but he gave them land and let them keep their gods. He
mopped at his stew with a chunk of bread. If Stannis thinks the fat man will ride the stag, hes wrong.

The Lionstar put in at Sisterton twelve days ago to fill her water casks. Do you know her? Crimson sails
and a gold lion on her prow. And full of Freys, making for White Harbor.
Freys? That was the last thing that Davos would have expected. The Freys killed Lord
Wymans son, we heard.
Aye, Lord Godric said, and the fat man was so wroth that he took a vow to live on bread and
wine till he had his vengeance. But before the day was out, he was stuffing clams and cakes into his
mouth again. Theres ships that go between the Sisters and White Harbor all the time. We sell them
crabs and fish and goat cheese, they sell us wood and wool and hides. From all I hear, his lordships
fatter than ever. So much for vows. Words are wind, and the wind from Manderlys mouth means no
more than the wind escaping out his bottom. The lord tore off another chunk of bread to swipe out his
trencher. The Freys were bringing the fat fool a bag of bones. Some call that courtesy, to bring a man
his dead sons bones. Had it been my son, I would have returned the courtesy and thanked the Freys
before I hanged them, but the fat mans too noble for that. He stuffed the bread into his mouth,
chewed, swallowed. I had the Freys to supper. One sat just where youre sitting now. Rhaegar, he
named himself. I almost laughed right in his face. Hed lost his wife, he said, but he meant to get himself
a new one in White Harbor. Ravens have been flying back and forth. Lord Wyman and Lord Walder have
made a pact, and mean to seal it with a marriage.
Davos felt as though the lord had punched him in the belly. If he tells it true, my king is lost.
Stannis Baratheon had desperate need of White Harbor. If Winterfell was the heart of the north, White
Harbor was its mouth. Its firth had remained free of ice even in the depths of winter for centuries. With
winter coming on, that could mean much and more. So could the citys silver. The Lannisters had all the
gold of Casterly Rock, and had wed the wealth of Highgarden. King Stanniss coffers were exhausted. I
must try, at least. There may be some way that I can stop this marriage. I have to reach White Harbor,
he said. Your lordship, I beg you, help me.
Lord Godric began to eat his trencher, tearing it apart in his big hands. The stew had softened
the stale bread. I have no love for northmen, he announced. The maesters say the Rape of the Three
Sisters was two thousand years ago, but Sisterton has not forgotten. We were a free people before that,
with our kings ruling over us. Afterward, we had to bend our knees to the Eyrie to get the northmen out.
The wolf and the falcon fought over us for a thousand years, till between the two of them they had
gnawed all the fat and flesh off the bones of these poor islands. As for your King Stannis, when he was
Roberts master of ships he sent a fleet into my port without my leave and made me hang a dozen fine
friends. Men like you. He went so far as to threaten to hang me if it should happen that some ship went
aground because the Night Lamp had gone black. I had to eat his arrogance. He ate some of the
trencher. Now he comes north humbled, with his tail between his legs. Why should I give him any aid?
Answer me that.
Because he is your rightful king, Davos thought. Because he is a strong man and a just one, the
only man who can restore the realm and defend it against the peril that gathers in the north. Because he
has a magic sword that glows with the light of the sun. The words caught in his throat. None of them

would sway the Lord of Sweetsister. None of them would get him a foot closer to White Harbor. What
answer does he want? Must I promise him gold we do not have? A highborn husband for his daughters
daughter? Lands, honors, titles? Lord Alester Florent had tried to play that game, and the king had
burned him for it.
The Hand has lost his tongue, it seems. He has no taste for sisters stew, or truth. Lord Godric
wiped his mouth.
The lion is dead, said Davos, slowly. Theres your truth, my lord. Tywin Lannister is dead.
What if he is?
Who rules now in Kings Landing? Not Tommen, he is just a child. Is it Ser Kevan?
Candlelight gleamed in Lord Godrics black eyes. If it were, youd be in chains. Its the queen
who rules.
Davos understood. He nurses doubts. He does not want to find himself upon the losing side.
Stannis held Storms End against the Tyrells and the Redwynes. He took Dragonstone from the last
Targaryens. He smashed the Iron Fleet off Fair Isle. This child king will not prevail against him.
This child king commands the wealth of Casterly Rock and the power of Highgarden. He has the
Boltons and the Freys. Lord Godric rubbed his chin. Still  in this world only winter is certain. Ned
Stark told my father that, here in this very hall.
Ned Stark was here?
At the dawn of Roberts Rebellion. The Mad King had sent to the Eyrie for Starks head, but Jon
Arryn sent him back defiance. Gulltown stayed loyal to the throne, though. To get home and call his
banners, Stark had to cross the mountains to the Fingers and find a fisherman to carry him across the
Bite. A storm caught them on the way. The fisherman drowned, but his daughter got Stark to the Sisters
before the boat went down. They say he left her with a bag of silver and a bastard in her belly. Jon
Snow, she named him, after Arryn.
Be that as it may. My father sat where I sit now when Lord Eddard came to Sisterton. Our
maester urged us to send Starks head to Aerys, to prove our loyalty. It would have meant a rich reward.
The Mad King was open-handed with them as pleased him. By then we knew that Jon Arryn had taken
Gulltown, though. Robert was the first man to gain the wall, and slew Marq Grafton with his own hand.
This Baratheon is fearless, I said. He fights the way a king should fight. Our maester chuckled at me
and told us that Prince Rhaegar was certain to defeat this rebel. That was when Stark said, In this world
only winter is certain. We may lose our heads, its true  but what if we prevail? My father sent him on
his way with his head still on his shoulders. If you lose, he told Lord Eddard, you were never here. 
No more than I was, said Davos Seaworth.

JON
They brought forth the King-Beyond-the-Wall with his hands bound by hempen rope and a
noose around his neck.
The other end of the rope was looped about the saddle horn of Ser Godry Farrings courser. The
Giantslayer and his mount were armored in silvered steel inlaid with niello. Mance Rayder wore only a
thin tunic that left his limbs naked to the cold. They could have let him keep his cloak, Jon Snow thought,
the one the wildling woman patched with strips of crimson silk.
Small wonder that the Wall was weeping.
Mance knows the haunted forest better than any ranger, Jon had told King Stannis, in his final
effort to convince His Grace that the King-Beyond-the-Wall would be of more use to them alive than
dead. He knows Tormund Giantsbane. He has fought the Others. And he had the Horn of Joramun and
did not blow it. He did not bring down the Wall when he could have.
His words fell on deaf ears. Stannis had remained unmoved. The law was plain; a deserters life
was forfeit.
Beneath the weeping Wall, Lady Melisandre raised her pale white hands. We all must choose,
she proclaimed. Man or woman, young or old, lord or peasant, our choices are the same. Her voice
made Jon Snow think of anise and nutmeg and cloves. She stood at the kings side on a wooden scaffold
raised above the pit. We choose light or we choose darkness. We choose good or we choose evil. We
choose the true god or the false.
Mance Rayders thick grey-brown hair blew about his face as he walked. He pushed it from his
eyes with bound hands, smiling. But when he saw the cage, his courage failed him. The queens men had
made it from the trees of the haunted forest, from saplings and supple branches, pine boughs sticky
with sap, and the bone-white fingers of the weirwoods. Theyd bent them and twisted them around and
through each other to weave a wooden lattice, then hung it high above a deep pit filled with logs,
leaves, and kindling.
The wildling king recoiled from the sight. No, he cried, mercy. This is not right, Im not the
king, they
Ser Godry gave a pull on the rope. The King-Beyond-the-Wall had no choice but to stumble after
him, the rope choking off his words. When he lost his feet, Godry dragged him the rest of the way.
Mance was bloody when the queens men half-shoved, half-carried him to the cage. A dozen
men-at-arms heaved together to hoist him into the air.
Lady Melisandre watched him rise. FREE FOLK! Here stands your king of lies. And here is the
horn he promised would bring down the Wall. Two queens men brought forth the Horn of Joramun,
black and banded with old gold, eight feet long from end to end. Runes were carved into the golden

bands, the writing of the First Men. Joramun had died thousands of years ago, but Mance had found his
grave beneath a glacier, high up in the Frostfangs. And Joramun blew the Horn of Winter, and woke
giants from the earth. Ygritte had told Jon that Mance never found the horn. She lied, or else Mance
kept it secret even from his own.
A thousand captives watched through the wooden bars of their stockade as the horn was lifted
high. All were ragged and half-starved. Wild-lings, the Seven Kingdoms called them; they named
themselves the free folk. They looked neither wild nor freeonly hungry, frightened, numb.
The Horn of Joramun? Melisandre said. No. Call it the Horn of Darkness. If the Wall falls, night
falls as well, the long night that never ends. It must not happen, will not happen! The Lord of Light has
seen his children in their peril and sent a champion to them, Azor Ahai reborn. She swept a hand
toward Stannis, and the great ruby at her throat pulsed with light.
He is stone and she is flame. The kings eyes were blue bruises, sunk deep in a hollow face. He
wore grey plate, a fur-trimmed cloak of cloth-of-gold flowing from his broad shoulders. His breastplate
had a flaming heart inlaid above his own. Girding his brows was a red-gold crown with points like
twisting flames. Val stood beside him, tall and fair. They had crowned her with a simple circlet of dark
bronze, yet she looked more regal in bronze than Stannis did in gold. Her eyes were grey and fearless,
unflinching. Beneath an ermine cloak, she wore white and gold. Her honey-blond hair had been done up
in a thick braid that hung over her right shoulder to her waist. The chill in the air had put color in her
cheeks.
Lady Melisandre wore no crown, but every man there knew that she was Stannis Baratheons
real queen, not the homely woman he had left to shiver at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea. Talk was, the king did
not mean to send for Queen Selyse and their daughter until the Nightfort was ready for habitation. Jon
felt sorry for them. The Wall offered few of the comforts that southron ladies and little highborn girls
were used to, and the Night-fort offered none. That was a grim place, even at the best of times.
FREE FOLK! cried Melisandre. Behold the fate of those who choose the darkness!
The Horn of Joramun burst into flame.
It went up with a whoosh as swirling tongues of green and yellow fire leapt up crackling all along
its length. Jons garron shied nervously, and up and down the ranks others fought to still their mounts as
well. A moan came from the stockade as the free folk saw their hope afire. A few began to shout and
curse, but most lapsed into silence. For half a heartbeat the runes graven on the gold bands seemed to
shimmer in the air. The queens men gave a heave and sent the horn tumbling down into the fire pit.
Inside his cage, Mance Rayder clawed at the noose about his neck with bound hands and
screamed incoherently of treachery and witchery, denying his kingship, denying his people, denying his
name, denying all that he had ever been. He shrieked for mercy and cursed the red woman and began to
laugh hysterically.

Jon watched unblinking. He dare not appear squeamish before his brothers. He had ordered out
two hundred men, more than half the garrison of Castle Black. Mounted in solemn sable ranks with tall
spears in hand, they had drawn up their hoods to shadow their faces  and hide the fact that so many
were greybeards and green boys. The free folk feared the Watch. Jon wanted them to take that fear
with them to their new homes south of the Wall.
The horn crashed amongst the logs and leaves and kindling. Within three heartbeats the whole
pit was aflame. Clutching the bars of his cage with bound hands, Mance sobbed and begged. When the
fire reached him he did a little dance. His screams became one long, wordless shriek of fear and pain.
Within his cage, he fluttered like a burning leaf, a moth caught in a candle flame.
Jon found himself remembering a song.
Brothers, oh brothers, my days here are done, the Dornishmans taken my life,
But what does it matter, for all men must die, and Ive tasted the Dornishmans wife!
Val stood on the platform as still as if she had been carved of salt. She will not weep nor look
away. Jon wondered what Ygritte would have done in her place. The women are the strong ones. He
found himself thinking about Sam and Maester Aemon, about Gilly and the babe. She will curse me with
her dying breath, but I saw no other way. Eastwatch reported savage storms upon the narrow sea. I
meant to keep them safe. Did I feed them to the crabs instead? Last night he had dreamed of Sam
drowning, of Ygritte dying with his arrow in her (it had not been his arrow, but in his dreams it always
was), of Gilly weeping tears of blood.
Jon Snow had seen enough. Now, he said.
Ulmer of the Kingswood jammed his spear into the ground, unslung his bow, and slipped a black
arrow from his quiver. Sweet Donnel Hill threw back his hood to do the same. Garth Greyfeather and
Bearded Ben nocked shafts, bent their bows, loosed.
One arrow took Mance Rayder in the chest, one in the gut, one in the throat. The fourth struck
one of the cages wooden bars, and quivered for an instant before catching fire. A womans sobs echoed
off the Wall as the wildling king slid bonelessly to the floor of his cage, wreathed in fire. And now his
Watch is done, Jon murmured softly. Mance Rayder had been a man of the Nights Watch once, before
he changed his black cloak for one slashed with bright red silk.
Up on the platform, Stannis was scowling. Jon refused to meet his eyes. The bottom had fallen
out of the wooden cage, and its bars were crumbling. Every time the fire licked upward, more branches
tumbled free, cherry red and black. The Lord of Light made the sun and moon and stars to light our
way, and gave us fire to keep the night at bay, Melisandre told the wildlings. None can withstand his
flames.
None can withstand his flames, the queens men echoed.

The red womans robes of deep-dyed scarlet swirled about her, and her coppery hair made a
halo round her face. Tall yellow flames danced from her fingertips like claws. FREE FOLK! Your false
gods cannot help you. Your false horn did not save you. Your false king brought you only death, despair,
defeat  but here stands the true king. BEHOLD HIS GLORY!
Stannis Baratheon drew Lightbringer.
The sword glowed red and yellow and orange, alive with light. Jon had seen the show before 
but not like this, never before like this. Light-bringer was the sun made steel. When Stannis raised the
blade above his head, men had to turn their heads or cover their eyes. Horses shied, and one threw his
rider. The blaze in the fire pit seemed to shrink before this storm of light, like a small dog cowering
before a larger one. The Wall itself turned red and pink and orange, as waves of color danced across the
ice. Is this the power of kings blood?
Westeros has but one king, said Stannis. His voice rang harsh, with none of Melisandres
music. With this sword I defend my subjects and destroy those who menace them. Bend the knee, and I
promise you food, land, and justice. Kneel and live. Or go and die. The choice is yours. He slipped
Lightbringer into its scabbard, and the world darkened once again, as if the sun had gone behind a
cloud. Open the gates.
OPEN THE GATES, bellowed Ser Clayton Suggs, in a voice as deep as a warhorn. OPEN THE
GATES, echoed Ser Corliss Penny, commanding the guards. OPEN THE GATES, cried the serjeants.
Men scrambled to obey. Sharpened stakes were wrenched from the ground, planks were dropped
across deep ditches, and the stockade gates were thrown wide. Jon Snow raised his hand and lowered it,
and his black ranks parted right and left, clearing a path to the Wall, where Dolorous Edd Tollett pushed
open the iron gate.
Come, urged Melisandre. Come to the light  or run back to the darkness. In the pit below
her, the fire was crackling. If you choose life, come to me.
And they came. Slowly at first, some limping or leaning on their fellows, the captives began to
emerge from their rough-hewn pen. If you would eat, come to me, Jon thought. If you would not freeze
or starve, submit. Hesitant, wary of some trap, the first few prisoners edged across the planks and
through the ring of the stakes, toward Melisandre and the Wall. More followed, when they saw that no
harm had come to those who went before. Then more, until it was a steady stream. Queens men in
studded jacks and halfhelms handed each passing man, woman, or child a piece of white weirwood: a
stick, a splintered branch as pale as broken bone, a spray of blood-red leaves. A piece of the old gods to
feed the new. Jon flexed the fingers of his sword hand.
The heat from the fire pit was palpable even at a distance; for the wild-lings, it had to be
blistering. He saw men cringing as they neared the flames, heard children cry. A few turned for the
forest. He watched a young woman stumble away with a child on either hand. Every few steps she
looked back to make certain no one was coming after them, and when she neared the trees she broke
into a run. One greybeard took the weir-wood branch they handed him and used it as a weapon, laying

about with it until the queens men converged on him with spears. The others had to step around his
body, until Ser Corliss had it thrown in the fire. More of the free folk chose the woods after thatone in
ten, perhaps.
But most came on. Behind them was only cold and death. Ahead was hope. They came on,
clutching their scraps of wood until the time came to feed them to the flames. Rhllor was a jealous
deity, ever hungry. So the new god devoured the corpse of the old, and cast gigantic shadows of Stannis
and Melisandre upon the Wall, black against the ruddy red reflections on the ice.
Sigorn was the first to kneel before the king. The new Magnar of Thenn was a younger, shorter
version of his fatherlean, balding, clad in bronze greaves and a leather shirt sewn with bronze scales.
Next came Rattleshirt in clattering armor made of bones and boiled leather, his helm a giants skull.
Under the bones lurked a ruined and wretched creature with cracked brown teeth and a yellow tinge to
the whites of his eyes. A small, malicious, treacherous man, as stupid as he is cruel. Jon did not believe
for a moment that he would keep faith. He wondered what Val was feeling as she watched him kneel,
forgiven.
Lesser leaders followed. Two clan chiefs of the Hornfoot men, whose feet were black and hard.
An old wisewoman revered by the peoples of the Milkwater. A scrawny dark-eyed boy of two-and-ten,
the son of Alfyn Crowkiller. Halleck, brother to Harma Dogshead, with her pigs. Each took a knee before
the king.
It is too cold for this mummers show, thought Jon. The free folk despise kneelers, he had
warned Stannis. Let them keep their pride, and they will love you better. His Grace would not listen.
He said, It is swords I need from them, not kisses.
Having knelt, the wildlings shuffled past the ranks of the black brothers to the gate. Jon had
detailed Horse and Satin and half a dozen others to lead them through the Wall with torches. On the far
side, bowls of hot onion soup awaited them, and chunks of black bread and sausage. Clothes as well:
cloaks, breeches, boots, tunics, good leather gloves. They would sleep on piles of clean straw, with fires
blazing to keep the chill of night at bay. This king was nothing if not methodical. Soon or late, however,
Tormund Giantsbane would assault the Wall again, and when that hour came Jon wondered whose side
Stanniss new-made subjects would choose. You can give them land and mercy, but the free folk choose
their own kings, and it was Mance they chose, not you.
Bowen Marsh edged his mount up next to Jons. This is a day I never thought to see. The Lord
Steward had thinned notably since suffering a head wound at the Bridge of Skulls. Part of one ear was
gone. He no longer looks much like a pomegranate, Jon thought. Marsh said, We bled to stop the
wildlings at the Gorge. Good men were slain there, friends and brothers. For what?
The realm will curse us all for this, declared Ser Alliser Thorne in a venomous tone. Every
honest man in Westeros will turn his head and spit at the mention of the Nights Watch.

What would you know of honest men? Quiet in the ranks. Ser Alliser had grown more
circumspect since Lord Janos had lost his head, but the malice was still there. Jon had toyed with the
idea of giving him the command Slynt had refused, but he wanted the man close. He was always the
more dangerous of the two. Instead he had dispatched a grizzled steward from the Shadow Tower to
take command at Greyguard.
He hoped the two new garrisons would make a difference. The Watch can make the free folk
bleed, but in the end we cannot hope to stop them. Giving Mance Rayder to the fire did not change the
truth of that. We are still too few and they are still too many, and without rangers, were good as blind. I
have to send men out. But if I do, will they come back again?
The tunnel through the Wall was narrow and twisting, and many of the wildlings were old or ill
or wounded, so the going was painfully slow. By the time the last of them had bent the knee, night had
fallen. The pit fire was burning low, and the kings shadow on the Wall had shrunk to a quarter of its
former height. Jon Snow could see his breath in the air. Cold, he thought, and getting colder. This
mummers show has gone on long enough.
Two score captives lingered by the stockade. Four giants were among them, massive hairy
creatures with sloped shoulders, legs as large as tree trunks, and huge splayed feet. Big as they were,
they might still have passed through the Wall, but one would not leave his mammoth, and the others
would not leave him. The rest of those who remained were all of human stature. Some were dead and
some were dying; more were their kin or close companions, unwilling to abandon them even for a bowl
of onion soup.
Some shivering, some too numb to shiver, they listened as the kings voice rumbled off the Wall.
You are free to go, Stannis told them. Tell your people what you witnessed. Tell them that you saw
the true king, and that they are welcome in his realm, so long as they keep his peace. Else-wise, they had
best flee or hide. I will brook no further attacks upon my Wall.
One realm, one god, one king! cried Lady Melisandre.
The queens men took up the cry, beating the butts of their spears against their shields. One
realm, one god, one king! STANNIS! STANNIS! ONE REALM, ONE GOD, ONE KING!
Val did not join the chant, he saw. Nor did the brothers of the Nights Watch. During the tumult
the few remaining wildlings melted into the trees. The giants were the last to go, two riding on the back
of a mammoth, the other two afoot. Only the dead were left behind. Jon watched Stannis descend from
the platform, with Melisandre by his side. His red shadow. She never leaves his side for long. The kings
honor guard fell in around themSer Godry, Ser Clayton, and a dozen other knights, queens men all.
Moonlight shimmered on their armor and the wind whipped at their cloaks. Lord Steward, Jon told
Marsh, break up that stockade for firewood and throw the corpses in the flames.

As my lord commands. Marsh barked out orders, and a swarm of his stewards broke from
ranks to attack the wooden walls. The Lord Steward watched them, frowning. These wildlings  do you
think they will keep faith, my lord?
Some will. Not all. We have our cowards and our knaves, our weak-lings and our fools, as do
they.
Our vows  we are sworn to protect the realm 
Once the free folk are settled in the Gift, they will become part of the realm, Jon pointed out.
These are desperate days, and like to grow more desperate. We have seen the face of our real foe, a
dead white face with bright blue eyes. The free folk have seen that face as well. Stannis is not wrong in
this. We must make common cause with the wildlings.
Common cause against a common foe, I could agree with that, said Bowen Marsh, but that
does not mean we should allow tens of thousands of half-starved savages through the Wall. Let them
return to their villages and fight the Others there, whilst we seal the gates. It will not be difficult, Othell
tells me. We need only fill the tunnels with chunks of stone and pour water through the murder holes.
The Wall does the rest. The cold, the weight  in a moons turn, it will be as if no gate had ever been.
Any foe would need to hack his way through.
Or climb.
Unlikely, said Bowen Marsh. These are not raiders, out to steal a wife and some plunder.
Tormund will have old women with him, children, herds of sheep and goats, even mammoths. He needs
a gate, and only three of those remain. And if he should send climbers up, well, defending against
climbers is as simple as spearing fish in a kettle.
Fish never climb out of the kettle and shove a spear through your belly. Jon had climbed the Wall
himself.
Marsh went on. Mance Rayders bowmen must have loosed ten thousand arrows at us, judging
from the number of spent shafts weve gathered up. Fewer than a hundred reached our men atop the
Wall, most of those lifted by some errant gust of wind. Red Alyn of the Rosewood was the only man to
die up there, and it was his fall that killed him, not the arrow that pricked his leg. Donal Noye died to
hold the gate. A gallant act, yes  but if the gate had been sealed, our brave armorer might still be with
us. Whether we face a hundred foes or a hundred thousand, so long as were atop the Wall and theyre
below, they cannot do us harm.
Hes not wrong. Mance Rayders host had broken against the Wall like a wave upon a stony
shore, though the defenders were no more than a handful of old men, green boys, and cripples. Yet
what Bowen was suggesting went against all of Jons instincts. If we seal the gates, we cannot send out
rangers, he pointed out. We will be as good as blind.

Lord Mormonts last ranging cost the Watch a quarter of its men, my lord. We need to
conserve what strength remains us. Every death diminishes us, and we are stretched so thin  Take the
high ground and win the battle, my uncle used to say. No ground is higher than the Wall, Lord
Commander.
Stannis promises land, food, and justice to any wildlings who bend the knee. He will never
permit us to seal the gates.
Marsh hesitated. Lord Snow, I am not one to bear tales, but there has been talk that you are
becoming too  too friendly with Lord Stannis. Some even suggest that you are  a 
A rebel and a turncloak, aye, and a bastard and a warg as well. Janos Slynt might be gone, but
his lies lingered. I know what they say. Jon had heard the whispers, had seen men turn away when he
crossed the yard. What would they have me do, take up swords against Stannis and the wildlings both?
His Grace has thrice the fighting men we do, and is our guest besides. The laws of hospitality protect
him. And we owe him and his a debt.
Lord Stannis helped us when we needed help, Marsh said doggedly, but he is still a rebel, and
his cause is doomed. As doomed as well be if the Iron Throne marks us down as traitors. We must be
certain that we do not choose the losing side.
It is not my intent to choose any side, said Jon, but I am not as certain of the outcome of this
war as you seem to be, my lord. Not with Lord Tywin dead. If the tales coming up the kingsroad could
be believed, the Kings Hand had been murdered by his dwarf son whilst sitting on a privy. Jon had
known Tyrion Lannister, briefly. He took my hand and named me friend. It was hard to believe the little
man had it in him to murder his own sire, but the fact of Lord Tywins demise seemed to be beyond
doubt. The lion in Kings Landing is a cub, and the Iron Throne has been known to cut grown men to
ribbons.
A boy he may be, my lord, but  King Robert was well loved, and most men still accept that
Tommen is his son. The more they see of Lord Stannis the less they love him, and fewer still are fond of
Lady Melisandre with her fires and this grim red god of hers. They complain.
They complained about Lord Commander Mormont too. Men love to complain about their
wives and lords, he told me once. Those without wives complain twice as much about their lords. Jon
Snow glanced toward the stockade. Two walls were down, a third falling fast. I will leave you to finish
here, Bowen. Make certain every corpse is burned. Thank you for your counsel. I promise you, I will
think on all youve said.
Smoke and drifting ash still lingered in the air about the pit as Jon trotted back to the gate.
There he dismounted, to walk his garron through the ice to the south side. Dolorous Edd went before
him with a torch. Its flames licked the ceiling, so cold tears trickled down upon them with every step.

It was a relief to see that horn burn, my lord, Edd said. Just last night I dreamt I was pissing
off the Wall when someone decided to give the horn a toot. Not that Im complaining. It was better than
my old dream, where Harma Dogshead was feeding me to her pigs.
Harmas dead, Jon said. But not the pigs. They look at me the way Slayer used to look at ham.
Not to say that the wildlings mean us harm. Aye, we hacked their gods apart and made them burn the
pieces, but we gave them onion soup. Whats a god compared to a nice bowl of onion soup? I could do
with one myself.
The odors of smoke and burned flesh still clung to Jons blacks. He knew he had to eat, but it
was company he craved, not food. A cup of wine with Maester Aemon, some quiet words with Sam, a
few laughs with Pyp and Grenn and Toad. Aemon and Sam were gone, though, and his other friends  I
will take supper with the men this evening.
Boiled beef and beets. Dolorous Edd always seemed to know what was cooking. Hobb says
hes out of horseradish, though. What good is boiled beef without horseradish?
Since the wildlings had burned the old common hall, the men of the Nights Watch took their
meals in the stone cellar below the armory, a cavernous space divided by two rows of square stone
pillars, with barrel-vaulted ceilings and great casks of wine and ale along the walls. When Jon entered,
four builders were playing at tiles at the table nearest the steps. Closer to the fire sat a group of rangers
and a few kings men, talking quietly.
The younger men were gathered at another table, where Pyp had stabbed a turnip with his
knife. The night is dark and full of turnips, he announced in a solemn voice. Let us all pray for venison,
my children, with some onions and a bit of tasty gravy. His friends laughedGrenn, Toad, Satin, the
whole lot of them.
Jon Snow did not join the laughter. Making mock of another mans prayer is fools work, Pyp.
And dangerous.
If the red gods offended, let him strike me down.
All the smiles had died. It was the priestess we were laughing at, said Satin, a lithe and pretty
youth who had once been a whore in Oldtown. We were only having a jape, my lord.
You have your gods and she has hers. Leave her be.
She wont let our gods be, argued Toad. She calls the Seven false gods, mlord. The old gods
too. She made the wildlings burn weirwood branches. You saw.
Lady Melisandre is not part of my command. You are. I wont have bad blood between the
kings men and my own.

Pyp laid a hand on Toads arm. Croak no more, brave Toad, for our Great Lord Snow has
spoken. Pyp hopped to his feet and gave Jon a mocking bow. I beg pardon. Henceforth, I shall not
even waggle my ears save by your lordships lordly leave.
He thinks this is all some game. Jon wanted to shake some sense into him. Waggle your ears all
you like. Its your tongue waggling that makes the trouble.
Ill see that hes more careful, Grenn promised, and Ill clout him if hes not. He hesitated.
My lord, will you sup with us? Owen, shove over and make room for Jon.
Jon wanted nothing more. No, he had to tell himself, those days are gone. The realization
twisted in his belly like a knife. They had chosen him to rule. The Wall was his, and their lives were his as
well. A lord may love the men that he commands, he could hear his lord father saying, but he cannot be
a friend to them. One day he may need to sit in judgment on them, or send them forth to die. Another
day, the lord commander lied. Edd, best see to your own supper. I have work to finish.
The outside air seemed even colder than before. Across the castle, he could see candlelight
shining from the windows of the Kings Tower. Val stood on the tower roof, gazing up at the Wall.
Stannis kept her closely penned in rooms above his own, but he did allow her to walk the battlements
for exercise. She looks lonely, Jon thought. Lonely, and lovely. Ygritte had been pretty in her own way,
with her red hair kissed by fire, but it was her smile that made her face come alive. Val did not need to
smile; she would have turned mens heads in any court in the wide world.
All the same, the wildling princess was not beloved of her gaolers. She scorned them all as
kneelers, and had thrice attempted to escape. When one man-at-arms grew careless in her presence
she had snatched his dagger from its sheath and stabbed him in the neck. Another inch to the left and
he might have died.
Lonely and lovely and lethal, Jon Snow reflected, and I might have had her. Her, and Winterfell,
and my lord fathers name. Instead he had chosen a black cloak and a wall of ice. Instead he had chosen
honor. A bastards sort of honor.
The Wall loomed on his right as he crossed the yard. Its high ice glimmered palely, but down
below all was shadow. At the gate a dim orange glow shone through the bars where the guards had
taken refuge from the wind. Jon could hear the creak of chains as the winch cage swung and scraped
against the ice. Up top, the sentries would be huddling in the warming shed around a brazier, shouting
to be heard above the wind. Or else they would have given up the effort, and each man would be sunk
in his own pool of silence. I should be walking the ice. The Wall is mine.
He was walking beneath the shell of the Lord Commanders Tower, past the spot where Ygritte
had died in his arms, when Ghost appeared beside him, his warm breath steaming in the cold. In the
moonlight, his red eyes glowed like pools of fire. The taste of hot blood filled Jons mouth, and he knew
that Ghost had killed that night. No, he thought. I am a man, not a wolf. He rubbed his mouth with the
back of a gloved hand and spat.

Clydas still occupied the rooms beneath the rookery. At Jons knock, he came shuffling, a taper
in his hand, to open the door a crack. Do I intrude? asked Jon.
Not at all. Clydas opened the door wider. I was mulling wine. Will my lord take a cup?
With pleasure. His hands were stiff from cold. He pulled off his gloves and flexed his fingers.
Clydas returned to the hearth to stir the wine. Hes sixty if hes a day. An old man. He only
seemed young compared with Aemon. Short and round, he had the dim pink eyes of some nocturnal
creature. A few white hairs clung to his scalp. When Clydas poured, Jon held the cup with both hands,
sniffed the spices, swallowed. The warmth spread through his chest. He drank again, long and deep, to
wash the taste of blood from his mouth.
The queens men are saying that the King-Beyond-the-Wall died craven. That he cried for
mercy and denied he was a king.
He did. Lightbringer was brighter than Id ever seen it. As bright as the sun. Jon raised his cup.
To Stannis Baratheon and his magic sword. The wine was bitter in his mouth.
His Grace is not an easy man. Few are, who wear a crown. Many good men have been bad
kings, Maester Aemon used to say, and some bad men have been good kings.
He would know. Aemon Targaryen had seen nine kings upon the Iron Throne. He had been a
kings son, a kings brother, a kings uncle. I looked at that book Maester Aemon left me. The Jade
Compendium. The pages that told of Azor Ahai. Lightbringer was his sword. Tempered with his wifes
blood if Votar can be believed. Thereafter Lightbringer was never cold to the touch, but warm as Nissa
Nissa had been warm. In battle the blade burned fiery hot. Once Azor Ahai fought a monster. When he
thrust the sword through the belly of the beast, its blood began to boil. Smoke and steam poured from
its mouth, its eyes melted and dribbled down its cheeks, and its body burst into flame.
Clydas blinked. A sword that makes its own heat 
 would be a fine thing on the Wall. Jon put aside his wine cup and drew on his black moleskin
gloves. A pity that the sword that Stannis wields is cold. Ill be curious to see how his Lightbringer
behaves in battle. Thank you for the wine. Ghost, with me. Jon Snow raised the hood of his cloak and
pulled at the door. The white wolf followed him back into the night.
The armory was dark and silent. Jon nodded to the guards before making his way past the silent
racks of spears to his rooms. He hung his sword belt from a peg beside the door and his cloak from
another. When he peeled off his gloves, his hands were stiff and cold. It took him a long while to get the
candles lit. Ghost curled up on his rug and went to sleep, but Jon could not rest yet. The scarred
pinewood table was covered with maps of the Wall and the lands beyond, a roster of rangers, and a
letter from the Shadow Tower written in Ser Denys Mallisters flowing hand.

He read the letter from the Shadow Tower again, sharpened a quill, and unstoppered a pot of
thick black ink. He wrote two letters, the first to Ser Denys, the second to Cotter Pyke. Both of them had
been hounding him for more men. Halder and Toad he dispatched west to the Shadow Tower, Grenn
and Pyp to Eastwatch-by-the-Sea. The ink would not flow properly, and all his words seemed curt and
crude and clumsy, yet he persisted.
When he finally put the quill down, the room was dim and chilly, and he could feel its walls
closing in. Perched above the window, the Old Bears raven peered down at him with shrewd black eyes.
My last friend, Jon thought ruefully. And I had best outlive you, or youll eat my face as well. Ghost did
not count. Ghost was closer than a friend. Ghost was part of him.
Jon rose and climbed the steps to the narrow bed that had once been Donal Noyes. This is my
lot, he realized as he undressed, from now until the end of my days.
DAENERYS
What is it? she cried, as Irri shook her gently by the shoulder. It was the black of night outside.
Something is wrong, she knew at once. Is it Daario? Whats happened? In her dream they had been
man and wife, simple folk who lived a simple life in a tall stone house with a red door. In her dream he
had been kissing her all overher mouth, her neck, her breasts.
No, Khaleesi, Irri murmured, it is your eunuch Grey Worm and the bald men. Will you see
them?
Yes. Her hair was disheveled and her bedclothes all atangle, Dany realized. Help me dress. Ill
have a cup of wine as well. To clear my head. To drown my dream. She could hear the soft sounds of
sobs. Who is that weeping?
Your slave Missandei. Jhiqui had a taper in her hand. My servant. I have no slaves. Dany did
not understand. Why does she weep?
For him who was her brother, Irri told her.
The rest she had from Skahaz, Reznak, and Grey Worm, when they were ushered into her
presence. Dany knew their tidings were bad before a word was spoken. One glance at the Shavepates
ugly face sufficed to tell her that. The Sons of the Harpy?
Skahaz nodded. His mouth was grim.
How many dead?
Reznak wrung his hands. N-nine, Magnificence. Foul work it was, and wicked. A dreadful night,
dreadful.

Nine. The word was a dagger in her heart. Every night the shadow war was waged anew beneath
the stepped pyramids of Meereen. Every morn the sun rose upon fresh corpses, with harpies drawn in
blood on the bricks beside them. Any freedman who became too prosperous or too outspoken was
marked for death. Nine in one night, though  That frightened her. Tell me.
Grey Worm answered. Your servants were set upon as they walked the bricks of Meereen to
keep Your Graces peace. All were well armed, with spears and shields and short swords. Two by two
they walked, and two by two they died. Your servants Black Fist and Cetherys were slain by cross-bow
bolts in Mazdhans Maze. Your servants Mossador and Duran were crushed by falling stones beneath
the river wall. Your servants Eladon Goldenhair and Loyal Spear were poisoned at a wineshop where
they were accustomed to stop each night upon their rounds.
Mossador. Dany made a fist. Missandei and her brothers had been taken from their home on
Naath by raiders from the Basilisk Isles and sold into slavery in Astapor. Young as she was, Missandei
had shown such a gift for tongues that the Good Masters had made a scribe of her. Mossador and
Marselen had not been so fortunate. They had been gelded and made into Unsullied. Have any of the
murderers been captured?
Your servants have arrested the owner of the wineshop and his daughters. They plead their
ignorance and beg for mercy.
They all plead ignorance and beg for mercy. Give them to the Shavepate. Skahaz, keep each
apart from the others and put them to the question.
It will be done, Your Worship. Would you have me question them sweetly, or sharply?
Sweetly, to begin. Hear what tales they tell and what names they give you. It may be they had
no part in this. She hesitated. Nine, the noble Reznak said. Who else?
Three freedmen, murdered in their homes, the Shavepate said. A moneylender, a cobbler,
and the harpist Rylona Rhee. They cut her fingers off before they killed her.
The queen flinched. Rylona Rhee had played the harp as sweetly as the Maiden. When she had
been a slave in Yunkai, she had played for every highborn family in the city. In Meereen she had become
a leader amongst the Yunkish freedmen, their voice in Danys councils. We have no captives but this
wineseller?
None, this one grieves to confess. We beg your pardon.
Mercy, thought Dany. They will have the dragons mercy. Skahaz, I have changed my mind.
Question the man sharply.
I could. Or I could question the daughters sharply whilst the father looks on. That will wring
some names from him.

Do as you think best, but bring me names. Her fury was a fire in her belly. I will have no more
Unsullied slaughtered. Grey Worm, pull your men back to their barracks. Henceforth let them guard my
walls and gates and person. From this day, it shall be for Meereenese to keep the peace in Meereen.
Skahaz, make me a new watch, made up in equal parts of shavepates and freedmen.
As you command. How many men?
As many as you require.
Reznak mo Reznak gasped. Magnificence, where is the coin to come from to pay wages for so
many men?
From the pyramids. Call it a blood tax. I will have a hundred pieces of gold from every pyramid
for each freedman that the Harpys Sons have slain.
That brought a smile to the Shavepates face. It will be done, he said, but Your Radiance
should know that the Great Masters of Zhak and Merreq are making preparations to quit their pyramids
and leave the city.
Daenerys was sick unto death of Zhak and Merreq; she was sick of all the Mereenese, great and
small alike. Let them go, but see that they take no more than the clothes upon their backs. Make
certain that all their gold remains here with us. Their stores of food as well.
Magnificence, murmured Reznak mo Reznak, we cannot know that these great nobles mean
to join your enemies. More like they are simply making for their estates in the hills.
They will not mind us keeping their gold safe, then. There is nothing to buy in the hills.
They are afraid for their children, Reznak said.
Yes, Daenerys thought, and so am I. We must keep them safe as well. I will have two children
from each of them. From the other pyramids as well. A boy and a girl.
Hostages, said Skahaz, happily. Pages and cupbearers. If the Great Masters make objection,
explain to them that in Westeros it is a great honor for a child to be chosen to serve at court. She left
the rest unspoken. Go and do as Ive commanded. I have my dead to mourn.
When she returned to her rooms atop the pyramid, she found Missandei crying softly on her
pallet, trying as best she could to muffle the sound of her sobs. Come sleep with me, she told the little
scribe. Dawn will not come for hours yet.
Your Grace is kind to this one. Missandei slipped under the sheets. He was a good brother.
Dany wrapped her arms about the girl. Tell me of him.

He taught me how to climb a tree when we were little. He could catch fish with his hands. Once
I found him sleeping in our garden with a hundred butterflies crawling over him. He looked so beautiful
that morning, this one  I mean, I loved him.
As he loved you. Dany stroked the girls hair. Say the word, my sweet, and I will send you
from this awful place. I will find a ship somehow and send you home. To Naath.
I would sooner stay with you. On Naath Id be afraid. What if the slavers came again? I feel safe
when Im with you.
Safe. The word made Danys eyes fill up with tears. I want to keep you safe. Missandei was
only a child. With her, she felt as if she could be a child too. No one ever kept me safe when I was little.
Well, Ser Willem did, but then he died, and Viserys  I want to protect you but  it is so hard. To be
strong. I dont always know what I should do. I must know, though. I am all they have. I am the queen 
the  the 
 mother, whispered Missandei. Mother to dragons. Dany shivered. No. Mother to us all.
Missandei hugged her tighter. Your Grace should sleep. Dawn will be here soon, and court.
Well both sleep, and dream of sweeter days. Close your eyes. When she did, Dany kissed her
eyelids and made her giggle.
Kisses came easier than sleep, however. Dany shut her eyes and tried to think of home, of
Dragonstone and Kings Landing and all the other places that Viserys had told her of, in a kinder land
than this  but her thoughts kept turning back to Slavers Bay, like ships caught in some bitter wind.
When Missandei was sound asleep, Dany slipped from her arms and stepped out into the predawn air to
lean upon the cool brick parapet and gaze out across the city. A thousand roofs stretched out below her,
painted in shades of ivory and silver by the moon.
Somewhere beneath those roofs, the Sons of the Harpy were gathered, plotting ways to kill her
and all those who loved her and put her children back in chains. Somewhere down there a hungry child
was crying for milk. Somewhere an old woman lay dying. Somewhere a man and a maid embraced, and
fumbled at each others clothes with eager hands. But up here there was only the sheen of moonlight on
pyramids and pits, with no hint what lay beneath. Up here there was only her, alone.
She was the blood of the dragon. She could kill the Sons of the Harpy, and the sons of the sons,
and the sons of the sons of the sons. But a dragon could not feed a hungry child nor help a dying
womans pain. And who would ever dare to love a dragon?
She found herself thinking of Daario Naharis once again, Daario with his gold tooth and trident
beard, his strong hands resting on the hilts of his matched arakh and stiletto, hilts wrought of gold in the
shape of naked women. The day he took his leave of her, as she was bidding him farewell, he had
brushed the balls of his thumbs lightly across them, back and forth. I am jealous of a sword hilt, she had
realized, of women made of gold. Sending him to the Lamb Men had been wise. She was a queen, and
Daario Naharis was not the stuff of kings.

It has been so long, she had said to Ser Barristan, just yesterday. What if Daario has betrayed
me and gone over to my enemies? Three treasons will you know. What if he met another woman,
some princess of the Lhazarene?
The old knight neither liked nor trusted Daario, she knew. Even so, he had answered gallantly.
There is no woman more lovely than Your Grace. Only a blind man could believe otherwise, and Daario
Naharis was not blind.
No, she thought. His eyes are a deep blue, almost purple, and his gold tooth gleams when he
smiles for me.
Ser Barristan was sure he would return, though. Dany could only pray that he was right.
A bath will help soothe me. She padded barefoot through the grass to her terrace pool. The
water felt cool on her skin, raising goosebumps. Little fish nibbled at her arms and legs. She closed her
eyes and floated.
A soft rustle made her open them again. She sat up with a soft splash. Missandei? she called.
Irri? Jhiqui?
They sleep, came the answer.
A woman stood under the persimmon tree, clad in a hooded robe that brushed the grass.
Beneath the hood, her face seemed hard and shiny. She is wearing a mask, Dany knew, a wooden mask
finished in dark red lacquer. Quaithe? Am I dreaming? She pinched her ear and winced at the pain. I
dreamt of you on Balerion, when first we came to Astapor.
You did not dream. Then or now.
What are you doing here? How did you get past my guards?
I came another way. Your guards never saw me.
If I call out, they will kill you.
They will swear to you that I am not here.
Are you here?
No. Hear me, Daenerys Targaryen. The glass candles are burning. Soon comes the pale mare,
and after her the others. Kraken and dark flame, lion and griffin, the suns son and the mummers
dragon. Trust none of them. Remember the Undying. Beware the perfumed seneschal.
Reznak? Why should I fear him? Dany rose from the pool. Water trickled down her legs, and
gooseflesh covered her arms in the cool night air. If you have some warning for me, speak plainly. What
do you want of me, Quaithe?

Moonlight shone in the womans eyes. To show you the way.
I remember the way. I go north to go south, east to go west, back to go forward. And to touch
the light I have to pass beneath the shadow. She squeezed the water from her silvery hair. I am
half-sick of riddling. In Qarth I was a beggar, but here I am a queen. I command you
Daenerys. Remember the Undying. Remember who you are.
The blood of the dragon. But my dragons are roaring in the darkness. I remember the
Undying. Child of three, they called me. Three mounts they promised me, three fires, and three
treasons. One for blood and one for gold and one for 
Your Grace? Missandei stood in the door of the queens bedchamber, a lantern in her hand.
Who are you talking to?
Dany glanced back toward the persimmon tree. There was no woman there. No hooded robe,
no lacquer mask, no Quaithe.
A shadow. A memory. No one. She was the blood of the dragon, but Ser Barristan had warned
her that in that blood there was a taint. Could I be going mad? They had called her father mad, once. I
was praying, she told the Naathi girl. It will be light soon. I had best eat something, befor e court.
I will bring you food to break your fast.
Alone again, Dany went all the way around the pyramid in hopes of finding Quaithe, past the
burned trees and scorched earth where her men had tried to capture Drogon. But the only sound was
the wind in the fruit trees, and the only creatures in the gardens were a few pale moths.
Missandei returned with a melon and a bowl of hard-cooked eggs, but Dany found she had no
appetite. As the sky lightened and the stars faded one by one, Irri and Jhiqui helped her don a tokar of
violet silk fringed in gold.
When Reznak and Skahaz appeared, she found herself looking at them askance, mindful of the
three treasons. Beware the perfumed seneschal. She sniffed suspiciously at Reznak mo Reznak. I could
command the Shavepate to arrest him and put him to the question. Would that forestall the prophecy?
Or would some other betrayer take his place? Prophecies are treacherous, she reminded herself, and
Reznak may be no more than he appears.
In the purple hall, Dany found her ebon bench piled high about with satin pillows. The sight
brought a wan smile to her lips. Ser Barristans work, she knew. The old knight was a good man, but
sometimes very literal. It was only a jape, ser, she thought, but she sat on one of the pillows just the
same.
Her sleepless night soon made itself felt. Before long she was fighting off a yawn as Reznak
prattled about the craftsmens guilds. The stonemasons were wroth with her, it seemed. The bricklayers
as well. Certain former slaves were carving stone and laying bricks, stealing work from guild journeymen

and masters alike. The freedmen work too cheaply, Magnificence, Reznak said. Some call themselves
journeymen, or even masters, titles that belong by rights only to the craftsmen of the guilds. The
masons and the bricklayers do respectfully petition Your Worship to uphold their ancient rights and
customs.
The freedmen work cheaply because they are hungry, Dany pointed out. If I forbid them to
carve stone or lay bricks, the chandlers, the weavers, and the goldsmiths will soon be at my gates asking
that they be excluded from those trades as well. She considered a moment. Let it be written that
henceforth only guild members shall be permitted to name themselves journeymen or masters 
provided the guilds open their rolls to any freedman who can demonstrate the requisite skills.
So shall it be proclaimed, said Reznak. Will it please Your Worship to hear the noble Hizdahr
zo Loraq?
Will he never admit defeat? Let him step forth.
Hizdahr was not in a tokar today. Instead he wore a simple robe of grey and blue. He was shorn
as well. He has shaved off his beard and cut his hair, she realized. The man had not gone shavepate, not
quite, but at least those absurd wings of his were gone. Your barber has served you well, Hizdahr. I
hope you have come to show me his work and not to plague me further about the fighting pits.
He made a deep obeisance. Your Grace, I fear I must.
Dany grimaced. Even her own people would give no rest about the matter. Reznak mo Reznak
stressed the coin to be made through taxes. The Green Grace said that reopening the pits would please
the gods. The Shavepate felt it would win her support against the Sons of the Harpy. Let them fight,
grunted Strong Belwas, who had once been a champion in the pits. Ser Barristan suggested a tourney
instead; his orphans could ride at rings and fight a mle with blunted weapons, he said, a suggestion
Dany knew was as hopeless as it was well-intentioned. It was blood the Meereenese yearned to see, not
skill. Elsewise the fighting slaves would have worn armor. Only the little scribe Missandei seemed to
share the queens misgivings.
I have refused you six times, Dany reminded Hizdahr. Your Radiance has seven gods, so
perhaps she will look upon my seventh plea with favor. Today I do not come alone. Will you hear my
friends? There are seven of them as well. He brought them forth one by one. Here is Khrazz. Here
Barsena Blackhair, ever valiant. Here Camarron of the Count and Goghor the Giant. This is the Spotted
Cat, this Fearless Ithoke. Last, Belaquo Bonebreaker. They have come to add their voices to mine own,
and ask Your Grace to let our fighting pits reopen.
Dany knew his seven, by name if not by sight. All had been amongst the most famed of
Meereens fighting slaves  and it had been the fighting slaves, freed from their shackles by her sewer
rats, who led the uprising that won the city for her. She owed them a blood debt. I will hear you, she
allowed.

One by one, each of them asked her to let the fighting pits reopen. Why? she demanded,
when Ithoke had finished. You are no longer slaves, doomed to die at a masters whim. I freed you.
Why should you wish to end your lives upon the scarlet sands?
I train since three, said Goghor the Giant. I kill since six. Mother of Dragons says I am free.
Why not free to fight?
If it is fighting you want, fight for me. Swear your sword to the Mothers Men or the Free
Brothers or the Stalwart Shields. Teach my other freedmen how to fight.
Goghor shook his head. Before, I fight for master. You say, fight for you. I say, fight for me. The
huge man thumped his chest with a fist as big as a ham. For gold. For glory.
Goghor speaks for us all. The Spotted Cat wore a leopard skin across one shoulder. The last
time I was sold, the price was three hundred thousand honors. When I was a slave, I slept on furs and
ate red meat off the bone. Now that Im free, I sleep on straw and eat salt fish, when I can get it.
Hizdahr swears that the winners shall share half of all the coin collected at the gates, said
Khrazz. Half, he swears it, and Hizdahr is an honorable man.
No, a cunning man. Daenerys felt trapped. And the losers? What shall they receive?
Their names shall be graven on the Gates of Fate amongst the other valiant fallen, declared
Barsena. For eight years she had slain every other woman sent against her, it was said. All men must
die, and women too  but not all will be remembered.
Dany had no answer for that. If this is truly what my people wish, do I have the right to deny it to
them? It was their city before it was mine, and it is their own lives they wish to squander. I will consider
all youve said. Thank you for your counsel. She rose. We will resume on the morrow.
All kneel for Daenerys Stormborn, the Unburnt, Queen of Meereen, Queen of the Andals and the
Rhoynar and the First Men, Khaleesi of Great Grass Sea, Breaker of Shackles, and Mother of Dragons,
Missandei called.
Ser Barristan escorted her back up to her chambers. Tell me a tale, ser, Dany said as they
climbed. Some tale of valor with a happy ending. She felt in need of happy endings. Tell me how you
escaped from the Usurper.
Your Grace. There is no valor in running for your life.
Dany seated herself on a cushion, crossed her legs, and gazed up at him. Please. It was the
Young Usurper who dismissed you from the Kingsguard 
Joffrey, aye. They gave my age for a reason, though the truth was elsewise. The boy wanted a
white cloak for his dog Sandor Clegane and his mother wanted the Kingslayer to be her lord

commander. When they told me, I  I took off my cloak as they commanded, threw my sword at
Joffreys feet, and spoke unwisely.
What did you say?
The truth  but truth was never welcome at that court. I walked from the throne room with my
head high, though I did not know where I was going. I had no home but White Sword Tower. My cousins
would find a place for me at Harvest Hall, I knew, but I had no wish to bring Joffreys displeasure down
upon them. I was gathering my things when it came to me that I had brought this on myself by taking
Roberts pardon. He was a good knight but a bad king, for he had no right to the throne he sat. That was
when I knew that to redeem myself I must find the true king, and serve him loyally with all the strength
that still remained me.
My brother Viserys.
Such was my intent. When I reached the stables the gold cloaks tried to seize me. Joffrey had
offered me a tower to die in, but I had spurned his gift, so now he meant to offer me a dungeon. The
commander of the City Watch himself confronted me, emboldened by my empty scabbard, but he had
only three men with him and I still had my knife. I slashed one mans face open when he laid his hands
upon me, and rode through the others. As I spurred for the gates I heard Janos Slynt shouting for them
to go after me. Once outside the Red Keep, the streets were congested, else I might have gotten away
clean. Instead they caught me at the River Gate. The gold cloaks who had pursued me from the castle
shouted for those at the gate to stop me, so they crossed their spears to bar my way.
And you without your sword? How did you get past them?
A true knight is worth ten guardsmen. The men at the gate were taken by surprise. I rode one
down, wrenched away his spear, and drove it through the throat of my closest pursuer. The other broke
off once I was through the gate, so I spurred my horse to a gallop and rode hellbent along the river until
the city was lost to sight behind me. That night I traded my horse for a handful of pennies and some
rags, and the next morning I joined the stream of smallfolk making their way to Kings Landing. Id gone
out the Mud Gate, so I returned through the Gate of the Gods, with dirt on my face, stubble on my
cheeks, and no weapon but a wooden staff. In roughspun clothes and mud-caked boots, I was just one
more old man fleeing the war. The gold cloaks took a stag from me and waved me through. Kings
Landing was crowded with smallfolk whod come seeking refuge from the fighting. I lost myself amongst
them. I had a little silver, but I needed that to pay my passage across the narrow sea, so I slept in septs
and alleys and took my meals in pot shops. I let my beard grow out and cloaked myself in age. The day
Lord Stark lost his head, I was there, watching. Afterward I went into the Great Sept and thanked the
seven gods that Joffrey had stripped me of my cloak.
Stark was a traitor who met a traitors end.
Your Grace, said Selmy, Eddard Stark played a part in your fathers fall, but he bore you no ill
will. When the eunuch Varys told us that you were with child, Robert wanted you killed, but Lord Stark

spoke against it. Rather than countenance the murder of children, he told Robert to find himself another
Hand.
Have you forgotten Princess Rhaenys and Prince Aegon?
Never. That was Lannister work, Your Grace.
Lannister or Stark, what difference? Viserys used to call them the Usurpers dogs. If a child is set
upon by a pack of hounds, does it matter which one tears out his throat? All the dogs are just as guilty.
The guilt  The word caught in her throat. Hazzea, she thought, and suddenly she heard herself say, I
have to see the pit, in a voice as small as a childs whisper. Take me down, ser, if you would.
A flicker of disapproval crossed the old mans face, but it was not his way to question his queen.
As you command.
The servants steps were the quickest way downnot grand, but steep and straight and narrow,
hidden in the walls. Ser Barristan brought a lantern, lest she fall. Bricks of twenty different colors
pressed close around them, fading to grey and black beyond the lantern light. Thrice they passed
Unsullied guards, standing as if they had been carved from stone. The only sound was the soft scruff of
their feet upon the steps.
At ground level the Great Pyramid of Meereen was a hushed place, full of dust and shadows. Its
outer walls were thirty feet thick. Within them, sounds echoed off arches of many-colored bricks, and
amongst the stables, stalls, and storerooms. They passed beneath three massive arches, down a torchlit
ramp into the vaults beneath the pyramid, past cisterns, dungeons, and torture chambers where slaves
had been scourged and skinned and burned with red-hot irons. Finally they came to a pair of huge iron
doors with rusted hinges, guarded by Unsullied.
At her command, one produced an iron key. The door opened, hinges shrieking. Daenerys
Targaryen stepped into the hot heart of darkness and stopped at the lip of a deep pit. Forty feet below,
her dragons raised their heads. Four eyes burned through the shadowstwo of molten gold and two of
bronze.
Ser Barristan took her by the arm. No closer.
You think they would harm me?
I do not know, Your Grace, but I would sooner not risk your person to learn the answer.
When Rhaegal roared, a gout of yellow flame turned darkness into day for half a heartbeat. The
fire licked along the walls, and Dany felt the heat upon her face, like the blast from an oven. Across the
pit, Viserions wings unfolded, stirring the stale air. He tried to fly to her, but the chains snapped taut as
he rose and slammed him down onto his belly. Links as big as a mans fist bound his feet to the floor.
The iron collar about his neck was fastened to the wall behind him. Rhaegal wore matching chains. In
the light of Selmys lantern, his scales gleamed like jade. Smoke rose from between his teeth. Bones

were scattered on the floor at his feet, cracked and scorched and splintered. The air was uncomfortably
hot and smelled of sulfur and charred meat.
They are larger. Danys voice echoed off the scorched stone walls. A drop of sweat trickled
down her brow and fell onto her breast. Is it true that dragons never stop growing?
If they have food enough, and space to grow. Chained up in here, though 
The Great Masters had used the pit as a prison. It was large enough to hold five hundred men 
and more than ample for two dragons. For how long, though? What will happen when they grow too
large for the pit? Will they turn on one another with flame and claw? Will they grow wan and weak, with
withered flanks and shrunken wings? Will their fires go out before the end?
What sort of mother lets her children rot in darkness?
If I look back, I am doomed, Dany told herself  but how could she not look back? I should have
seen it coming. Was I so blind, or did I close my eyes willfully, so I would not have to see the price of
power?
Viserys had told her all the tales when she was little. He loved to talk of dragons. She knew how
Harrenhal had fallen. She knew about the Field of Fire and the Dance of the Dragons. One of her
forebears, the third Aegon, had seen his own mother devoured by his uncles dragon. And there were
songs beyond count of villages and kingdoms that lived in dread of dragons till some brave dragonslayer
rescued them. At Astapor the slavers eyes had melted. On the road to Yunkai, when Daario tossed the
heads of Sallor the Bald and Prendahl na Ghezn at her feet, her children made a feast of them. Dragons
had no fear of men. And a dragon large enough to gorge on sheep could take a child just as easily.
Her name had been Hazzea. She was four years old. Unless her father lied. He might have lied.
No one had seen the dragon but him. His proof was burned bones, but burned bones proved nothing.
He might have killed the little girl himself, and burned her afterward. He would not have been the first
father to dispose of an unwanted girl child, the Shavepate claimed. The Sons of the Harpy might have
done it, and made it look like dragons work to make the city hate me. Dany wanted to believe that 
but if that was so, why had Hazzeas father waited until the audience hall was almost empty to come
forward? If his purpose had been to inflame the Meereenese against her, he would have told his tale
when the hall was full of ears to hear.
The Shavepate had urged her to put the man to death. At least rip out his tongue. This mans
lie could destroy us all, Magnificence. Instead Dany chose to pay the blood price. No one could tell her
the worth of a daughter, so she set it at one hundred times the worth of a lamb. I would give Hazzea
back to you if I could, she told the father, but some things are beyond the power of even a queen. Her
bones shall be laid to rest in the Temple of the Graces, and a hundred candles shall burn day and night in
her memory. Come back to me each year upon her nameday, and your other children shall not want 
but this tale must never pass your lips again.

Men will ask, the grieving father had said. They will ask me where Hazzea is and how she
died.
She died of a snakebite, Reznak mo Reznak insisted. A ravening wolf carried her off. A sudden
sickness took her. Tell them what you will, but never speak of dragons.
Viserions claws scrabbled against the stones, and the huge chains rattled as he tried to make his
way to her again. When he could not, he gave a roar, twisted his head back as far as he was able, and
spat golden flame at the wall behind him. How soon till his fire burns hot enough to crack stone and melt
iron?
Once, not long ago, he had ridden on her shoulder, his tail coiled round her arm. Once she had
fed him morsels of charred meat from her own hand. He had been the first chained up. Daenerys had
led him to the pit herself and shut him up inside with several oxen. Once he had gorged himself he grew
drowsy. They had chained him whilst he slept.
Rhaegal had been harder. Perhaps he could hear his brother raging in the pit, despite the walls
of brick and stone between them. In the end, they had to cover him with a net of heavy iron chain as he
basked on her terrace, and he fought so fiercely that it had taken three days to carry him down the
servants steps, twisting and snapping. Six men had been burned in the struggle.
And Drogon 
The winged shadow, the grieving father called him. He was the largest of her three, the fiercest,
the wildest, with scales as black as night and eyes like pits of fire.
Drogon hunted far afield, but when he was sated he liked to bask in the sun at the apex of the
Great Pyramid, where once the harpy of Meereen had stood. Thrice they had tried to take him there,
and thrice they had failed. Two score of her bravest had risked themselves trying to capture him. Almost
all had suffered burns, and four of them had died. The last she had seen of Drogon had been at sunset
on the night of the third attempt. The black dragon had been flying north across the Skahazadhan
toward the tall grasses of the Dothraki sea. He had not returned.
Mother of dragons, Daenerys thought. Mother of monsters. What have I unleashed upon the
world? A queen I am, but my throne is made of burned bones, and it rests on quicksand. Without
dragons, how could she hope to hold Meereen, much less win back Westeros? I am the blood of the
dragon, she thought. If they are monsters, so am I.
REEK
The rat squealed as he bit into it, squirming wildly in his hands, frantic to escape. The belly was
the softest part. He tore at the sweet meat, the warm blood running over his lips. It was so good that it

brought tears to his eyes. His belly rumbled and he swallowed. By the third bite the rat had ceased to
struggle, and he was feeling almost content.
Then he heard the sounds of voices outside the dungeon door.
At once he stilled, fearing even to chew. His mouth was full of blood and flesh and hair, but he
dare not spit or swallow. He listened in terror, stiff as stone, to the scuff of boots and the clanking of
iron keys. No, he thought, no, please gods, not now, not now. It had taken him so long to catch the rat. If
they catch me with it, they will take it away, and then theyll tell, and Lord Ramsay will hurt me.
He knew he ought to hide the rat, but he was so hungry. It had been two days since he had
eaten, or maybe three. Down here in the dark it was hard to tell. Though his arms and legs were thin as
reeds, his belly was swollen and hollow, and ached so much that he found he could not sleep. Whenever
he closed his eyes, he found himself remembering Lady Hornwood. After their wedding, Lord Ramsay
had locked her away in a tower and starved her to death. In the end she had eaten her own fingers.
He crouched down in a corner of his cell, clutching his prize under his chin. Blood ran from the
corners of his mouth as he nibbled at the rat with what remained of his teeth, trying to bolt down as
much of the warm flesh as he could before the cell was opened. The meat was stringy, but so rich he
thought he might be sick. He chewed and swallowed, picking small bones from the holes in his gums
where teeth had been yanked out. It hurt to chew, but he was so hungry he could not stop.
The sounds were growing louder. Please gods, he isnt coming for me, he prayed, tearing off one
of the rats legs. It had been a long time since anyone had come for him. There were other cells, other
prisoners. Sometimes he heard them screaming, even through the thick stone walls. The women always
scream the loudest. He sucked at the raw meat and tried to spit out the leg bone, but it only dribbled
over his lower lip and tangled in his beard. Go away, he prayed, go away, pass me by, please, please.
But the footsteps stopped just when they were loudest, and the keys clattered right outside the
door. The rat fell from his fingers. He wiped his bloody fingers on his breeches. No, he mumbled,
noooo. His heels scrabbled at the straw as he tried to push himself into the corner, into the cold damp
stone walls.
The sound of the lock turning was the most terrible of all. When the light hit him full in the face,
he let out a shriek. He had to cover his eyes with his hands. He would have clawed them out if hed
dared, his head was pounding so. Take it away, do it in the dark, please, oh please.
Thats not him, said a boys voice. Look at him. Weve got the wrong cell.
Last cell on the left, another boy replied. This is the last cell on the left, isnt it?
Aye. A pause. Whats he saying?
I dont think he likes the light.

Would you, if you looked like that? The boy hawked and spat. And the stench of him. Im like
to choke.
Hes been eating rats, said the second boy. Look.
The first boy laughed. He has. Thats funny.
I had to. The rats bit him when he slept, gnawing at his fingers and his toes, even at his face, so
when he got his hands on one he did not hesitate. Eat or be eaten, those were the only choices. I did
it, he mumbled, I did, I did, I ate him, they do the same to me, please 
The boys moved closer, the straw crunching softly under their feet. Talk to me, said one of
them. He was the smaller of the two, a thin boy, but clever. Do you remember who you are?
The fear came bubbling up inside him, and he moaned. Talk to me. Tell me your name.
My name. A scream caught in his throat. They had taught him his name, they had, they had, but
it had been so long that hed forgotten. If I say it wrong, hell take another finger, or worse, hell  hell
 He would not think about that, he could not think about that. There were needles in his jaw, in his
eyes. His head was pounding. Please, he squeaked, his voice thin and weak. He sounded a hundred
years old. Perhaps he was. How long have I been in here? Go, he mumbled, through broken teeth and
broken fingers, his eyes closed tight against the terrible bright light. Please, you can have the rat, dont
hurt me 
Reek, said the larger of the boys. Your name is Reek. Remember? He was the one with the
torch. The smaller boy had the ring of iron keys.
Reek? Tears ran down his cheeks. I remember. I do. His mouth opened and closed. My name
is Reek. It rhymes with leek. In the dark he did not need a name, so it was easy to forget. Reek, Reek,
my name is Reek. He had not been born with that name. In another life he had been someone else, but
here and now, his name was Reek. He remembered.
He remembered the boys as well. They were clad in matching lambs-wool doublets, silver-grey
with dark blue trim. Both were squires, both were eight, and both were Walder Frey. Big Walder and
Little Walder, yes. Only the big one was Little and the little one was Big, which amused the boys and
confused the rest of the world. I know you, he whispered, through cracked lips. I know your names.
Youre to come with us, said Little Walder. His lordship has need of you, said Big Walder.
Fear went through him like a knife. They are only children, he thought. Two boys of eight. He
could overcome two boys of eight, surely. Even as weak as he was, he could take the torch, take the
keys, take the dagger sheathed on Little Walders hip, escape. No. No, it is too easy. It is a trap. If I run,
he will take another finger from me, he will take more of my teeth.
He had run before. Years ago, it seemed, when he still had some strength in him, when he had
still been defiant. That time it had been Kyra with the keys. She told him she had stolen them, that she

knew a postern gate that was never guarded. Take me back to Winterfell, mlord, she begged,
pale-faced and trembling. I dont know the way. I cant escape alone. Come with me, please. And so
he had. The gaoler was dead drunk in a puddle of wine, with his breeches down around his ankles. The
dungeon door was open and the postern gate had been unguarded, just as she had said. They waited for
the moon to go behind a cloud, then slipped from the castle and splashed across the Weeping Water,
stumbling over stones, half-frozen by the icy stream. On the far side, he had kissed her. Youve saved
us, he said. Fool. Fool.
It had all been a trap, a game, a jape. Lord Ramsay loved the chase and preferred to hunt
two-legged prey. All night they ran through the darkling wood, but as the sun came up the sound of a
distant horn came faintly through the trees, and they heard the baying of a pack of hounds. We should
split up, he told Kyra as the dogs drew closer. They cannot track us both. The girl was crazed with
fear, though, and refused to leave his side, even when he swore that he would raise a host of ironborn
and come back for her if she should be the one they followed.
Within the hour, they were taken. One dog knocked him to the ground, and a second bit Kyra on
the leg as she scrambled up a hillside. The rest surrounded them, baying and snarling, snapping at them
every time they moved, holding them there until Ramsay Snow rode up with his hunts-men. He was still
a bastard then, not yet a Bolton. There you are, he said, smiling down at them from the saddle. You
wound me, wandering off like this. Have you grown tired of my hospitality so soon? That was when
Kyra seized a stone and threw it at his head. It missed by a good foot, and Ramsay smiled. You must be
punished.
Reek remembered the desperate, frightened look in Kyras eyes. She had never looked so young
as she did in that moment, still half a girl, but there was nothing he could do. She brought them down on
us, he thought. If we had separated as I wanted, one of us might have gotten away.
The memory made it hard to breathe. Reek turned away from the torch with tears glimmering in
his eyes. What does he want of me this time? he thought, despairing. Why wont he just leave me be? I
did no wrong, not this time, why wont they just leave me in the dark? Hed had a rat, a fat one, warm
and wriggling 
Should we wash him? asked Little Walder. His lordship likes him stinky, said Big Walder.
Thats why he named him Reek.
Reek. My name is Reek, it rhymes with bleak. He had to remember that. Serve and obey and
remember who you are, and no more harm will come to you. He promised, his lordship promised. Even if
he had wanted to resist, he did not have the strength. It had been scourged from him, starved from him,
flayed from him. When Little Walder pulled him up and Big Walder waved the torch at him to herd him
from the cell, he went along as docile as a dog. If hed had a tail, he would have tucked it down between
his legs.
If I had a tail, the Bastard would have cut it off. The thought came unbidden, a vile thought,
dangerous. His lordship was not a bastard anymore. Bolton, not Snow. The boy king on the Iron Throne

had made Lord Ramsay legitimate, giving him the right to use his lord fathers name. Calling him Snow
reminded him of his bastardy and sent him into a black rage. Reek must remember that. And his name,
he must remember his name. For half a heartbeat it eluded him, and that frightened him so badly that
he tripped on the steep dungeon steps and tore his breeches open on the stone, drawing blood. Little
Walder had to shove the torch at him to get him back on his feet and moving again.
Out in the yard, night was settling over the Dreadfort and a full moon was rising over the castles
eastern walls. Its pale light cast the shadows of the tall triangular merlons across the frozen ground, a
line of sharp black teeth. The air was cold and damp and full of half-forgotten smells. The world, Reek
told himself, this is what the world smells like. He did not know how long he had been down there in the
dungeons, but it had to have been half a year at least. That long, or longer. What if it has been five
years, or ten, or twenty? Would I even know? What if I went mad down there, and half my life is gone?
But no, that was folly. It could not have been so long. The boys were still boys. If it had been ten years,
they would have grown into men. He had to remember that. I must not let him drive me mad. He can
take my fingers and my toes, he can put out my eyes and slice my ears off, but he cannot take my wits
unless I let him.
Little Walder led the way with torch in hand. Reek followed meekly, with Big Walder just behind
him. The dogs in the kennels barked as they went by. Wind swirled through the yard, cutting through
the thin cloth of the filthy rags he wore and raising gooseprickles on his skin. The night air was cold and
damp, but he saw no sign of snow though surely winter was close at hand. Reek wondered if he would
be alive to see the snows come. How many fingers will I have? How many toes? When he raised a hand,
he was shocked to see how white it was, how fleshless. Skin and bones, he thought. I have an old mans
hands. Could he have been wrong about the boys? What if they were not Little Walder and Big Walder
after all, but the sons of the boys hed known?
The great hall was dim and smoky. Rows of torches burned to left and right, grasped by skeletal
human hands jutting from the walls. High overhead were wooden rafters black from smoke, and a
vaulted ceiling lost in shadow. The air was heavy with the smells of wine and ale and roasted meat.
Reeks stomach rumbled noisily at the scents, and his mouth began to water.
Little Walder pushed him stumbling past the long tables where the men of the garrison were
eating. He could feel their eyes upon him. The best places, up near the dais, were occupied by Ramsays
favorites, the Bastards Boys. Ben Bones, the old man who kept his lordships beloved hunting hounds.
Damon, called Damon Dance-for-Me, fair-haired and boyish. Grunt, who had lost his tongue for speaking
carelessly in Lord Rooses hearing. Sour Alyn. Skinner. Yellow Dick. Farther down, below the salt, were
others that Reek knew by sight if not by name: sworn swords and serjeants, soldiers and gaolers and
torturers. But there were strangers too, faces he did not know. Some wrinkled their noses as he passed,
whilst others laughed at the sight of him. Guests, Reek thought, his lordships friends, and I am brought
up to amuse them. A shiver of fear went through him.
At the high table the Bastard of Bolton sat in his lord fathers seat, drinking from his fathers cup.
Two old men shared the high table with him, and Reek knew at a glance that both were lords. One was

gaunt, with flinty eyes, a long white beard, and a face as hard as a winter frost. His jerkin was a ragged
bearskin, worn and greasy. Underneath he wore a ringmail byrnie, even at table. The second lord was
thin as well, but twisted where the first was straight. One of his shoulders was much higher than the
other, and he stooped over his trencher like a vulture over carrion. His eyes were grey and greedy, his
teeth yellow, his forked beard a tangle of snow and silver. Only a few wisps of white hair still clung to his
spotted skull, but the cloak he wore was soft and fine, grey wool trimmed with black sable and fastened
at the shoulder with a starburst wrought in beaten silver.
Ramsay was clad in black and pinkblack boots, black belt and scabbard, black leather jerkin
over a pink velvet doublet slashed with dark red satin. In his right ear gleamed a garnet cut in the shape
of a drop of blood. Yet for all the splendor of his garb, he remained an ugly man, big-boned and
slope-shouldered, with a fleshiness to him that suggested that in later life he would run to fat. His skin
was pink and blotchy, his nose broad, his mouth small, his hair long and dark and dry. His lips were wide
and meaty, but the thing men noticed first about him were his eyes. He had his lord fathers
eyessmall, close-set, queerly pale. Ghost grey, some men called the shade, but in truth his eyes were
all but colorless, like two chips of dirty ice.
At the sight of Reek, he smiled a wet-lipped smile. There he is. My sour old friend. To the men
beside him he said, Reek has been with me since I was a boy. My lord father gave him to me as a token
of his love.
The two lords exchanged a look. I had heard your serving man was dead, said the one with the
stooped shoulder. Slain by the Starks, they said.
Lord Ramsay chuckled. The ironmen will tell you that what is dead may never die, but rises
again, harder and stronger. Like Reek. He smells of the grave, though, I grant you that.
He smells of nightsoil and stale vomit. The stoop-shouldered old lord tossed aside the bone
that hed been gnawing on and wiped his fingers on the tablecloth. Is there some reason you must
needs inflict him upon us whilst were eating?
The second lord, the straight-backed old man in the mail byrnie, studied Reek with flinty eyes.
Look again, he urged the other lord. His hairs gone white and he is three stone thinner, aye, but this
is no serving man. Have you forgotten?
The crookback lord looked again and gave a sudden snort. Him? Can it be? Starks ward.
Smiling, always smiling.
He smiles less often now, Lord Ramsay confessed. I may have broken some of his pretty
white teeth.
You would have done better to slit his throat, said the lord in mail. A dog who turns against
his master is fit for naught but skinning.

Oh, hes been skinned, here and there, said Ramsay. Yes, my lord. I was bad, my lord.
Insolent and  He licked his lip, trying to think of what else he had done. Serve and obey, he told
himself, and hell let you live, and keep the parts that you still have. Serve and obey and remember your
name. Reek, Reek, it rhymes with meek.  bad and 
Theres blood on your mouth, Ramsay observed. Have you been chewing on your fingers
again, Reek?
No. No, my lord, I swear. Reek had tried to bite his own ring finger off once, to stop it hurting
after they had stripped the skin from it. Lord Ramsay would never simply cut off a mans finger. He
preferred to flay it and let the exposed flesh dry and crack and fester. Reek had been whipped and
racked and cut, but there was no pain half so excruciating as the pain that followed flaying. It was the
sort of pain that drove men mad, and it could not be endured for long. Soon or late the victim would
scream, Please, no more, no more, stop it hurting, cut it off, and Lord Ramsay would oblige. It was a
game they played. Reek had learned the rules, as his hands and feet could testify, but that one time he
had forgotten and tried to end the pain himself, with his teeth. Ramsay had not been pleased, and the
offense had cost Reek another toe. I ate a rat, he mumbled.
A rat? Ramsays pale eyes glittered in the torchlight. All the rats in the Dreadfort belong to
my lord father. How dare you make a meal of one without my leave.
Reek did not know what to say, so he said nothing. One wrong word could cost him another toe,
even a finger. Thus far he had lost two fingers off his left hand and the pinky off his right, but only the
little toe off his right foot against three from his left. Sometimes Ramsay would make japes about
balancing him out. My lord was only japing, he tried to tell himself. He does not want to hurt me, he told
me so, he only does it when I give him cause. His lord was merciful and kind. He might have flayed his
face off for some of the things Reek had said, before hed learned his true name and proper place.
This grows tedious, said the lord in the mail byrnie. Kill him and be done with it.
Lord Ramsay filled his cup with ale. That would spoil our celebration, my lord. Reek, I have glad
tidings for you. I am to be wed. My lord father is bringing me a Stark girl. Lord Eddards daughter, Arya.
You remember little Arya, dont you?
Arya Underfoot, he almost said. Arya Horseface. Robbs younger sister, brown-haired,
long-faced, skinny as a stick, always dirty. Sansa was the pretty one. He remembered a time when he
had thought that Lord Eddard Stark might marry him to Sansa and claim him for a son, but that had only
been a childs fancy. Arya, though  I remember her. Arya.
She shall be the Lady of Winterfell, and me her lord.
She is only a girl. Yes, my lord. Congratulations.
Will you attend me at my wedding, Reek?

He hesitated. If you wish it, my lord.
Oh, I do.
He hesitated again, wondering if this was some cruel trap. Yes, my lord. If it please you. I would
be honored.
We must take you out of that vile dungeon, then. Scrub you pink again, get you some clean
clothes, some food to eat. Some nice soft porridge, would you like that? Perhaps a pease pie laced with
bacon. I have a little task for you, and youll need your strength back if you are to serve me. You do want
to serve me, I know.
Yes, my lord. More than anything. A shiver went through him. Im your Reek. Please let me
serve you. Please.
Since you ask so nicely, how can I deny you? Ramsay Bolton smiled. I ride to war, Reek. And
you will be coming with me, to help me fetch home my virgin bride.
BRAN
Something about the way the raven screamed sent a shiver running up Brans spine. I am almost
a man grown, he had to remind himself. I have to be brave now.
But the air was sharp and cold and full of fear. Even Summer was afraid. The fur on his neck was
bristling. Shadows stretched against the hillside, black and hungry. All the trees were bowed and twisted
by the weight of ice they carried. Some hardly looked like trees at all. Buried from root to crown in
frozen snow, they huddled on the hill like giants, monstrous and misshapen creatures hunched against
the icy wind.
They are here. The ranger drew his longsword. Where? Meeras voice was hushed. Close. I
dont know. Somewhere.
The raven shrieked again. Hodor, whispered Hodor. He had his hands tucked up beneath his
armpits. Icicles hung from the brown briar of his beard, and his mustache was a lump of frozen snot,
glittering redly in the light of sunset.
Those wolves are close as well, Bran warned them. The ones that have been following us.
Summer can smell them whenever were downwind.
Wolves are the least of our woes, said Coldhands. We have to climb. It will be dark soon. You
would do well to be inside before night comes. Your warmth will draw them. He glanced to the west,
where the light of the setting sun could be seen dimly through the trees, like the glow of a distant fire.

Is this the only way in? asked Meera. The back door is three leagues north, down a sinkhole.
That was all he had to say. Not even Hodor could climb down into a sinkhole with Bran heavy on
his back, and Jojen could no more walk three leagues than run a thousand.
Meera eyed the hill above. The way looks clear.
Looks, the ranger muttered darkly. Can you feel the cold? Theres something here. Where are
they?
Inside the cave? suggested Meera. The cave is warded. They cannot pass. The ranger used
his sword to point. You can see the entrance there. Halfway up, between the weir-woods, that cleft in
the rock.
I see it, said Bran. Ravens were flying in and out.
Hodor shifted his weight. Hodor.
A fold in the rock, thats all I see, said Meera. Theres a passage there. Steep and twisty at
first, a runnel through the rock. If you can reach it, youll be safe.
What about you?
The cave is warded.
Meera studied the cleft in the hillside. It cant be more than a thousand yards from here to
there.
No, thought Bran, but all those yards are upward. The hill was steep and thickly wooded. The
snow had stopped three days ago, but none of it had melted. Beneath the trees, the ground was
blanketed in white, still pristine and unbroken. No ones here, said Bran, bravely. Look at the snow.
There are no footprints.
The white walkers go lightly on the snow, the ranger said. Youll find no prints to mark their
passage. A raven descended from above to settle on his shoulder. Only a dozen of the big black birds
remained with them. The rest had vanished along the way; every dawn when they arose, there had been
fewer of them. Come, the bird squawked. Come, come.
The three-eyed crow, thought Bran. The greenseer. Its not so far, he said. A little climb, and
well be safe. Maybe we can have a fire. All of them were cold and wet and hungry, except the ranger,
and Jojen Reed was too weak to walk unaided.
You go. Meera Reed bent down beside her brother. He was settled in the bole of an oak, eyes
closed, shivering violently. What little of his face could be seen beneath his hood and scarf was as
colorless as the surrounding snow, but breath still puffed faintly from his nostrils whenever he exhaled.
Meera had been carrying him all day. Food and fire will set him right again, Bran tried to tell himself,

though he wasnt sure it would. I cant fight and carry Jojen both, the climbs too steep, Meera was
saying. Hodor, you take Bran up to that cave.
Hodor. Hodor clapped his hands together. Jojen just needs to eat, Bran said, miserably. It
had been twelve days since the elk had collapsed for the third and final time, since Coldhands had knelt
beside it in the snowbank and murmured a blessing in some strange tongue as he slit its throat. Bran
wept like a little girl when the bright blood came rushing out. He had never felt more like a cripple than
he did then, watching helplessly as Meera Reed and Coldhands butchered the brave beast who had
carried them so far. He told himself he would not eat, that it was better to go hungry than to feast upon
a friend, but in the end hed eaten twice, once in his own skin and once in Summers. As gaunt and
starved as the elk had been, the steaks the ranger carved from him had sustained them for seven days,
until they finished the last of them huddled over a fire in the ruins of an old hillfort.
He needs to eat, Meera agreed, smoothing her brothers brow. We all do, but theres no food
here. Go.
Bran blinked back a tear and felt it freeze upon his cheek. Coldhands took Hodor by the arm.
The light is fading. If theyre not here now, they will be soon. Come.
Wordless for once, Hodor slapped the snow off his legs, and plowed upward through the
snowdrifts with Bran upon his back. Coldhands stalked beside them, his blade in a black hand. Summer
came after. In some places the snow was higher than he was, and the big direwolf had to stop and shake
it off after plunging through the thin crust. As they climbed, Bran turned awkwardly in his basket to
watch as Meera slid an arm beneath her brother to lift him to his feet. Hes too heavy for her. Shes
half-starved, shes not as strong as she was. She clutched her frog spear in her other hand, jabbing the
tines into the snow for a little more support. Meera had just begun to struggle up the hill, half-dragging
and half-carrying her little brother, when Hodor passed between two trees, and Bran lost sight of them.
The hill grew steeper. Drifts of snow cracked under Hodors boots. Once a rock moved beneath
his foot and he slid backwards, and almost went tumbling back down the hill. The ranger caught him by
the arm and saved him. Hodor, said Hodor. Every gust of wind filled the air with fine white powder
that shone like glass in the last light of day. Ravens flapped around them. One flew ahead and vanished
inside the cave. Only eighty yards now, Bran thought, thats not far at all.
Summer stopped suddenly, at the bottom of a steep stretch of unbroken white snow. The
direwolf turned his head, sniffed the air, then snarled. Fur bristling, he began to back away.
Hodor, stop, said Bran. Hodor. Wait. Something was wrong. Summer smelled it, and so did
he. Something bad. Something close. Hodor, no, go back.
Coldhands was still climbing, and Hodor wanted to keep up. Hodor, hodor, hodor, he
grumbled loudly, to drown out Brans complaints. His breathing had grown labored. Pale mist filled the
air. He took a step, then another. The snow was almost waist deep and the slope was very steep. Hodor

was leaning forward, grasping at rocks and trees with his hands as he climbed. Another step. Another.
The snow Hodor disturbed slid downhill, starting a small avalanche behind them.
Sixty yards. Bran craned himself sideways to better see the cave. Then he saw something else.
A fire! In the little cleft between the weirwood trees was a flickering glow, a ruddy light calling through
the gathering gloom. Look, someone
Hodor screamed. He twisted, stumbled, fell.
Bran felt the world slide sideways as the big stableboy spun violently around. A jarring impact
drove the breath from him. His mouth was full of blood and Hodor was thrashing and rolling, crushing
the crippled boy beneath him.
Something has hold of his leg. For half a heartbeat Bran thought maybe a root had gotten
tangled round his ankle  until the root moved. A hand, he saw, as the rest of the wight came bursting
from beneath the snow.
Hodor kicked at it, slamming a snow-covered heel full into the things face, but the dead man
did not even seem to feel it. Then the two of them were grappling, punching and clawing at each other,
sliding down the hill. Snow filled Brans mouth and nose as they rolled over, but in a half a heartbeat he
was rolling up again. Something slammed against his head, a rock or a chunk of ice or a dead mans fist,
he could not tell, and he found himself out of his basket, sprawled across the hillside, spitting snow, his
gloved hand full of hair that hed torn from Hodors head.
All around him, wights were rising from beneath the snow.
Two, three, four. Bran lost count. They surged up violently amidst sudden clouds of snow. Some
wore black cloaks, some ragged skins, some nothing. All of them had pale flesh and black hands. Their
eyes glowed like pale blue stars.
Three of them descended on the ranger. Bran saw Coldhands slash one across the face. The
thing kept right on coming, driving him back into the arms of another. Two more were going after
Hodor, lumbering clumsily down the slope. Meera was going to climb right into this, Bran realized, with
a sick sense of helpless terror. He smashed the snow and shouted out a warning.
Something grabbed hold of him.
That was when his shout became a scream. Bran filled a fist with snow and threw it, but the
wight did not so much as blink. A black hand fumbled at his face, another at his belly. Its fingers felt like
iron. Hes going to pull my guts out.
But suddenly Summer was between them. Bran glimpsed skin tear like cheap cloth, heard the
splintering of bone. He saw a hand and wrist rip loose, pale fingers wriggling, the sleeve faded black
roughspun. Black, he thought, hes wearing black, he was one of the Watch. Summer flung the arm

aside, twisted, and sank his teeth into the dead mans neck under the chin. When the big grey wolf
wrenched free, he took most of the creatures throat out in an explosion of pale rotten meat.
The severed hand was still moving. Bran rolled away from it. On his belly, clawing at the snow,
he glimpsed the trees above, pale and snow-cloaked, the orange glow between.
Fifty yards. If he could drag himself fifty yards, they could not get him. Damp seeped through his
gloves as he clutched at roots and rocks, crawling toward the light. A little farther, just a little farther.
Then you can rest beside the fire.
The last light had vanished from amongst the trees by then. Night had fallen. Coldhands was
hacking and cutting at the circle of dead men that surrounded him. Summer was tearing at the one that
hed brought down, its face between his teeth. No one was paying any mind to Bran. He crawled a little
higher, dragging his useless legs behind him. If I can reach that cave 
Hoooodor came a whimper, from somewhere down below.
And suddenly he was not Bran, the broken boy crawling through the snow, suddenly he was
Hodor halfway down the hill, with the wight raking at his eyes. Roaring, he came lurching to his feet,
throwing the thing violently aside. It went to one knee, began to rise again. Bran ripped Hodors
longsword from his belt. Deep inside he could hear poor Hodor whimpering still, but outside he was
seven feet of fury with old iron in his hand. He raised the sword and brought it down upon the dead
man, grunting as the blade sheared through wet wool and rusted mail and rotted leather, biting deep
into the bones and flesh beneath. HODOR! he bellowed, and slashed again. This time he took the
wights head off at the neck, and for half a moment he exulted  until a pair of dead hands came
groping blindly for his throat.
Bran backed away, bleeding, and Meera Reed was there, driving her frog spear deep into the
wights back. Hodor, Bran roared again, waving her uphill. Hodor, hodor. Jojen was twisting feebly
where shed laid him down. Bran went to him, dropped the longsword, gathered the boy into Hodors
arm, and lurched back to his feet. HODOR! he bellowed.
Meera led the way back up the hill, jabbing at the wights when they came near. The things could
not be hurt, but they were slow and clumsy. Hodor, Hodor said with every step. Hodor, hodor. He
wondered what Meera would think if he should suddenly tell her that he loved her.
Up above them, flaming figures were dancing in the snow.
The wights, Bran realized. Someone set the wights on fire.
Summer was snarling and snapping as he danced around the closest, a great ruin of a man
wreathed in swirling flame. He shouldnt get so close, what is he doing? Then he saw himself, sprawled
facedown in the snow. Summer was trying to drive the thing away from him. What will happen if it kills
me? the boy wondered. Will I be Hodor for good or all? Will I go back into Summers skin? Or will I just
be dead?

The world moved dizzily around him. White trees, black sky, red flames, everything was whirling,
shifting, spinning. He felt himself stumbling. He could hear Hodor screaming, Hodor hodor hodor
hodor. Hodor hodor hodor hodor. Hodor hodor hodor hodor hodor. A cloud of ravens was pouring
from the cave, and he saw a little girl with a torch in hand, darting this way and that. For a moment Bran
thought it was his sister Arya  madly, for he knew his little sister was a thousand leagues away, or
dead. And yet there she was, whirling, a scrawny thing, ragged, wild, her hair atangle. Tears filled
Hodors eyes and froze there.
Everything turned inside out and upside down, and Bran found himself back inside his own skin,
half-buried in the snow. The burning wight loomed over him, etched tall against the trees in their snowy
shrouds. It was one of the naked ones, Bran saw, in the instant before the nearest tree shook off the
snow that covered it and dropped it all down upon his head.
The next he knew, he was lying on a bed of pine needles beneath a dark stone roof. The cave.
Im in the cave. His mouth still tasted of blood where hed bitten his tongue, but a fire was burning to his
right, the heat washing over his face, and he had never felt anything so good. Summer was there,
sniffing round him, and Hodor, soaking wet. Meera cradled Jojens head in her lap. And the Arya thing
stood over them, clutching her torch.
The snow, Bran said. It fell on me. Buried me.
Hid you. I pulled you out. Meera nodded at the girl. It was her who saved us, though. The
torch  fire kills them.
Fire burns them. Fire is always hungry.
That was not Aryas voice, nor any childs. It was a womans voice, high and sweet, with a
strange music in it like none that he had ever heard and a sadness that he thought might break his heart.
Bran squinted, to see her better. It was a girl, but smaller than Arya, her skin dappled like a does
beneath a cloak of leaves. Her eyes were queerlarge and liquid, gold and green, slitted like a cats
eyes. No one has eyes like that. Her hair was a tangle of brown and red and gold, autumn colors, with
vines and twigs and withered flowers woven through it.
Who are you? Meera Reed was asking.
Bran knew. Shes a child. A child of the forest. He shivered, as much from wonderment as cold.
They had fallen into one of Old Nans tales.
The First Men named us children, the little woman said. The giants called us woh dak nag
gran, the squirrel people, because we were small and quick and fond of trees, but we are no squirrels,
no children. Our name in the True Tongue means those who sing the song of earth. Before your Old
Tongue was ever spoken, we had sung our songs ten thousand years.
Meera said, You speak the Common Tongue now.

For him. The Bran boy. I was born in the time of the dragon, and for two hundred years I
walked the world of men, to watch and listen and learn. I might be walking still, but my legs were sore
and my heart was weary, so I turned my feet for home.
Two hundred years? said Meera.
The child smiled. Men, they are the children.
Do you have a name? asked Bran. When I am needing one. She waved her torch toward the
black crack in the back wall of the cave. Our way is down. You must come with me now.
Bran shivered again. The ranger 
He cannot come.
Theyll kill him.
No. They killed him long ago. Come now. It is warmer down deep, and no one will hurt you
there. He is waiting for you.
The three-eyed crow? asked Meera. The greenseer. And with that she was off, and they had
no choice but to follow. Meera helped Bran back up onto Hodors back, though his basket was
half-crushed and wet from melting snow. Then she slipped an arm around her brother and shouldered
him back onto his feet once more. His eyes opened. What? he said. Meera? Where are we? When
he saw the fire, he smiled. I had the strangest dream.
The way was cramped and twisty, and so low that Hodor soon was crouching. Bran hunched
down as best he could, but even so, the top of his head was soon scraping and bumping against the
ceiling. Loose dirt crumbled at each touch and dribbled down into his eyes and hair, and once he
smacked his brow on a thick white root growing from the tunnel wall, with tendrils hanging from it and
spiderwebs between its fingers.
The child went in front with the torch in hand, her cloak of leaves whispering behind her, but
the passage turned so much that Bran soon lost sight of her. Then the only light was what was reflected
off the passage walls. After they had gone down a little, the cave divided, but the left branch was dark as
pitch, so even Hodor knew to follow the moving torch to the right.
The way the shadows shifted made it seem as if the walls were moving too. Bran saw great
white snakes slithering in and out of the earth around him, and his heart thumped in fear. He wondered
if they had blundered into a nest of milk snakes or giant grave worms, soft and pale and squishy. Grave
worms have teeth.
Hodor saw them too. Hodor, he whimpered, reluctant to go on. But when the girl child
stopped to let them catch her, the torchlight steadied, and Bran realized that the snakes were only
white roots like the one hed hit his head on. Its weirwood roots, he said. Remember the heart tree
in the godswood, Hodor? The white tree with the red leaves? A tree cant hurt you.

Hodor. Hodor plunged ahead, hurrying after the child and her torch, deeper into the earth.
They passed another branching, and another, then came into an echoing cavern as large as the great hall
of Winterfell, with stone teeth hanging from its ceiling and more poking up through its floor. The child in
the leafy cloak wove a path through them. From time to time she stopped and waved her torch at them
impatiently. This way, it seemed to say, this way, this way, faster.
There were more side passages after that, more chambers, and Bran heard dripping water
somewhere to his right. When he looked off that way, he saw eyes looking back at them, slitted eyes
that glowed bright, reflecting back the torchlight. More children, he told himself, the girl is not the only
one, but Old Nans tale of Gendels children came back to him as well.
The roots were everywhere, twisting through earth and stone, closing off some passages and
holding up the roofs of others. All the color is gone, Bran realized suddenly. The world was black soil and
white wood. The heart tree at Winterfell had roots as thick around as a giants legs, but these were even
thicker. And Bran had never seen so many of them. There must be a whole grove of weirwoods growing
up above us.
The light dwindled again. Small as she was, the child-who-was-not-a-child moved quickly when
she wanted. As Hodor thumped after her, something crunched beneath his feet. His halt was so sudden
that Meera and Jojen almost slammed into his back.
Bones, said Bran. Its bones. The floor of the passage was littered with the bones of birds
and beasts. But there were other bones as well, big ones that must have come from giants and small
ones that could have been from children. On either side of them, in niches carved from the stone, skulls
looked down on them. Bran saw a bear skull and a wolf skull, half a dozen human skulls and near as
many giants. All the rest were small, queerly formed. Children of the forest. The roots had grown in and
around and through them, every one. A few had ravens perched atop them, watching them pass with
bright black eyes.
The last part of their dark journey was the steepest. Hodor made the final descent on his arse,
bumping and sliding downward in a clatter of broken bones, loose dirt, and pebbles. The girl child was
waiting for them, standing on one end of a natural bridge above a yawning chasm. Down below in the
darkness, Bran heard the sound of rushing water. An underground river.
Do we have to cross? Bran asked, as the Reeds came sliding down behind him. The prospect
frightened him. If Hodor slipped on that narrow bridge, they would fall and fall.
No, boy, the child said. Behind you. She lifted her torch higher, and the light seemed to shift
and change. One moment the flames burned orange and yellow, filling the cavern with a ruddy glow;
then all the colors faded, leaving only black and white. Behind them Meera gasped. Hodor turned.
Before them a pale lord in ebon finery sat dreaming in a tangled nest of roots, a woven
weirwood throne that embraced his withered limbs as a mother does a child.

His body was so skeletal and his clothes so rotted that at first Bran took him for another corpse,
a dead man propped up so long that the roots had grown over him, under him, and through him. What
skin the corpse lord showed was white, save for a bloody blotch that crept up his neck onto his cheek.
His white hair was fine and thin as root hair and long enough to brush against the earthen floor. Roots
coiled around his legs like wooden serpents. One burrowed through his breeches into the desiccated
flesh of his thigh, to emerge again from his shoulder. A spray of dark red leaves sprouted from his skull,
and grey mushrooms spotted his brow. A little skin remained, stretched across his face, tight and hard as
white leather, but even that was fraying, and here and there the brown and yellow bone beneath was
poking through.
Are you the three-eyed crow? Bran heard himself say. A three-eyed crow should have three
eyes. He has only one, and that one red. Bran could feel the eye staring at him, shining like a pool of
blood in the torchlight. Where his other eye should have been, a thin white root grew from an empty
socket, down his cheek, and into his neck.
A  crow? The pale lords voice was dry. His lips moved slowly, as if they had forgotten how to
form words. Once, aye. Black of garb and black of blood. The clothes he wore were rotten and faded,
spotted with moss and eaten through with worms, but once they had been black. I have been many
things, Bran. Now I am as you see me, and now you will understand why I could not come to you 
except in dreams. I have watched you for a long time, watched you with a thousand eyes and one. I saw
your birth, and that of your lord father before you. I saw your first step, heard your first word, was part
of your first dream. I was watching when you fell. And now you are come to me at last, Brandon Stark,
though the hour is late.
Im here, Bran said, only Im broken. Will you  will you fix me  my legs, I mean?
No, said the pale lord. That is beyond my powers.
Brans eyes filled with tears. We came such a long way. The chamber echoed to the sound of the
black river.
You will never walk again, Bran, the pale lips promised, but you will fly.
TYRION
For a long while he did not stir, but lay unmoving upon the heap of old sacks that served him for
a bed, listening to the wind in the lines, to the lapping of the river at the hull.
A full moon floated above the mast. It is following me downriver, watching me like some great
eye. Despite the warmth of the musty skins that covered him, a shiver went through the little man. I
need a cup of wine. A dozen cups of wine. But the moon would blink before that whoreson Griff let him

quench his thirst. Instead he drank water, and was condemned to sleepless nights and days of sweats
and shakes.
The dwarf sat up, cradling his head in his hands. Did I dream? All memory of it had fled. The
nights had never been kind to Tyrion Lannister. He slept badly even on soft feather beds. On the Shy
Maid, he made his bed atop the roof of the cabin, with a coil of hempen rope for a pillow. He liked it
better up here than in the boats cramped hold. The air was fresher, and the river sounds were sweeter
than Ducks snoring. There was a price to be paid for such joys, though; the deck was hard, and he woke
stiff and sore, his legs cramped and aching.
They were throbbing now, his calves gone hard as wood. He kneaded them with his fingers,
trying to rub the ache away, but when he stood the pain was still enough to make him grimace. I need to
bathe. His boys clothes stank, and so did he. The others bathed in the river, but thus far he had not
joined them. Some of the turtles hed seen in the shallows looked big enough to bite him in half.
Bonesnappers, Duck called them. Besides, he did not want Lemore to see him naked.
A wooden ladder led down from the cabin roof. Tyrion pulled on his boots and descended to the
afterdeck, where Griff sat wrapped in a wolf-skin cloak beside an iron brazier. The sellsword kept the
night watch by himself, rising as the rest of his band sought their beds and retiring when the sun came
up.
Tyrion squatted across from him and warmed his hands over the coals. Across the water
nightingales were singing. Day soon, he said to Griff.
Not soon enough. We need to be under way. If it had been up to Griff, the Shy Maid would
continue downstream by night as well as day, but Yandry and Ysilla refused to risk their poleboat in the
dark. The Upper Rhoyne was full of snags and sawyers, any one of which could rip out the Shy Maids
hull. Griff did not want to hear it. What he wanted was Volantis.
The sellswords eyes were always moving, searching the night for  what? Pirates? Stone men?
Slave-catchers? The river had perils, the dwarf knew, but Griff himself struck Tyrion as more dangerous
than any of them. He reminded Tyrion of Bronn, though Bronn had a sellswords black humor and Griff
had no humor at all.
I would kill for a cup of wine, muttered Tyrion.
Griff made no reply. You will die before you drink, his pale eyes seemed to say. Tyrion had drunk
himself blind his first night on the Shy Maid. The next day he awoke with dragons fighting in his skull.
Griff took one look at him retching over the side of the poleboat, and said, You are done with drink.
Wine helps me sleep, Tyrion had protested. Wine drowns my dreams, he might have said.
Then stay awake, Griff had replied, implacable.

To the east, the first pale light of day suffused the sky above the river. The waters of the Rhoyne
slowly went from black to blue, to match the sellswords hair and beard. Griff got to his feet. The others
should wake soon. The deck is yours. As the nightingales fell silent, the river larks took up their song.
Egrets splashed amongst the reeds and left their tracks across the sandbars. The clouds in the sky were
aglow: pink and purple, maroon and gold, pearl and saffron. One looked like a dragon. Once a man has
seen a dragon in flight, let him stay at home and tend his garden in content, someone had written once,
for this wide world has no greater wonder. Tyrion scratched at his scar and tried to recall the authors
name. Dragons had been much in his thoughts of late.
Good morrow, Hugor. Septa Lemore had emerged in her white robes, cinched at the waist
with a woven belt of seven colors. Her hair flowed loose about her shoulders. How did you sleep?
Fitfully, good lady. I dreamed of you again. A waking dream. He could not sleep, so he had
eased a hand between his legs and imagined the septa atop him, breasts bouncing.
A wicked dream, no doubt. You are a wicked man. Will you pray with me and ask forgiveness
for your sins?
Only if we pray in the fashion of the Summer Isles. No, but do give the Maiden a long, sweet kiss
for me.
Laughing, the septa walked to the prow of the boat. It was her custom to bathe in the river
every morning. Plainly, this boat was not named for you, Tyrion called as she disrobed.
The Mother and the Father made us in their image, Hugor. We should glory in our bodies, for
they are the work of gods.
The gods must have been drunk when they got to me. The dwarf watched Lemore slip into the
water. The sight always made him hard. There was something wonderfully wicked about the thought of
peeling the septa out of those chaste white robes and spreading her legs. Innocence despoiled, he
thought  though Lemore was not near as innocent as she appeared. She had stretch marks on her belly
that could only have come from childbirth.
Yandry and Ysilla had risen with the sun and were going about their business. Yandry stole a
glance at Septa Lemore from time to time as he was checking the lines. His small dark wife, Ysilla, took
no notice. She fed some wood chips to the brazier on the afterdeck, stirred the coals with a blackened
blade, and began to knead the dough for the morning biscuits.
When Lemore climbed back onto the deck, Tyrion savored the sight of water trickling between
her breasts, her smooth skin glowing golden in the morning light. She was past forty, more handsome
than pretty, but still easy on the eye. Being randy is the next best thing to being drunk, he decided. It
made him feel as if he was still alive. Did you see the turtle, Hugor? the septa asked him, wringing
water from her hair. The big ridgeback?

The early morning was the best time for seeing turtles. During the day they would swim down
deep, or hide in cuts along the banks, but when the sun was newly risen they came to the surface. Some
liked to swim beside the boat. Tyrion had glimpsed a dozen different sorts: large turtles and small ones,
flatbacks and red-ears, softshells and bonesnappers, brown turtles, green turtles, black turtles, clawed
turtles and horned turtles, turtles whose ridged and patterned shells were covered with whorls of gold
and jade and cream. Some were so large they could have borne a man upon their backs. Yandry swore
the Rhoynar princes used to ride them across the river. He and his wife were Greenblood born, a pair of
Dornish orphans come home to Mother Rhoyne.
I missed the ridgeback. I was watching the naked woman. I am sad for you. Lemore slipped
her robe over her head. I know you only rise so early in hopes of seeing turtles.
I like to watch the sun come up as well. It was like watching a maiden rising naked from her
bath. Some might be prettier than others, but every one was full of promise. The turtles have their
charms, I will allow. Nothing delights me so much as the sight of a nice pair of shapely  shells.
Septa Lemore laughed. Like everyone else aboard the Shy Maid, she had her secrets. She was
welcome to them. I do not want to know her, I only want to fuck her. She knew it too. As she hung her
septas crystal about her neck, to nestle in the cleft between her breasts, she teased him with a smile.
Yandry pulled up the anchor, slid one of the long poles off the cabin roof, and pushed them off.
Two of the herons raised their heads to watch as the Shy Maid drifted away from the bank, out into the
current. Slowly the boat began to move downstream. Yandry went to the tiller. Ysilla was turning the
biscuits. She laid an iron pan atop the brazier and put the bacon in. Some days she cooked biscuits and
bacon; some days bacon and biscuits. Once every fortnight there might be a fish, but not today.
When Ysilla turned her back, Tyrion snatched a biscuit off the brazier, darting away just in time
to avoid a smack from her fearsome wooden spoon. They were best when eaten hot, dripping with
honey and butter. The smell of the bacon cooking soon fetched Duck up from the hold. He sniffed over
the brazier, received a swack from Ysillas spoon, and went back to have his morning piss off the stern.
Tyrion waddled over to join him. Now heres a sight to see, he quipped as they were emptying
their bladders, a dwarf and a duck, making the mighty Rhoyne that much mightier.
Yandry snorted in derision. Mother Rhoyne has no need of your water, Yollo. She is the
greatest river in the world.
Tyrion shook off the last few drops. Big enough to drown a dwarf, I grant you. The Mander is as
broad, though. So is the Trident, near its mouth. The Blackwater runs deeper.
You do not know the river. Wait, and you will see.
The bacon turned crisp, the biscuits golden brown. Young Griff stumbled up onto deck yawning.
Good morrow, all. The lad was shorter than Duck, but his lanky build suggested that he had not yet
come into his full growth. This beardless boy could have any maiden in the Seven Kingdoms, blue hair or

no. Those eyes of his would melt them. Like his sire, Young Griff had blue eyes, but where the fathers
eyes were pale, the sons were dark. By lamplight they turned black, and in the light of dusk they
seemed purple. His eyelashes were as long as any womans.
I smell bacon, the lad said, pulling on his boots. Good bacon, said Ysilla. Sit.
She fed them on the afterdeck, pressing honeyed biscuits on Young Griff and hitting Ducks hand
with her spoon whenever he made a grab for more bacon. Tyrion pulled apart two biscuits, filled them
with bacon, and carried one to Yandry at the tiller. Afterward he helped Duck to raise the Shy Maids big
lateen sail. Yandry took them out into the center of the river, where the current was strongest. The Shy
Maid was a sweet boat. Her draft was so shallow she could work her way up even the smallest of the
rivers vassal streams, negotiating sandbars that would have stranded larger vessels, yet with her sail
raised and a current under her, she could make good speed. That could mean life and death on the
upper reaches of the Rhoyne, Yandry claimed. There is no law above the Sorrows, not for a thousand
years.
And no people, so far as I can see. Hed glimpsed some ruins along the banks, piles of masonry
overgrown by vines and moss and flowers, but no other signs of human habitation.
You do not know the river, Yollo. A pirate boat may lurk up any stream, and escaped slaves oft
hide amongst the ruins. The slave-catchers seldom come so far north.
Slave-catchers would be a welcome change from turtles. Not being an escaped slave, Tyrion
need not fear being caught. And no pirate was like to bother a poleboat moving downstream. The
valuable goods came up the river from Volantis.
When the bacon was gone, Duck punched Young Griff in the shoulder. Time to raise some
bruises. Swords today, I think.
Swords? Young Griff grinned. Swords will be sweet.
Tyrion helped him dress for the bout, in heavy breeches, padded doublet, and a dinted suit of
old steel plate. Ser Rolly shrugged into his mail and boiled leather. Both set helms upon their heads and
chose blunted longswords from the bundle in the weapons chest. They set to on the afterdeck, having at
each other lustily whilst the rest of the morning company looked on.
When they fought with mace or blunted longaxe, Ser Rollys greater size and strength would
quickly overwhelm his charge; with swords the contests were more even. Neither man had taken up a
shield this morning, so it was a game of slash and parry, back and forth across the deck. The river rang to
the sounds of their combat. Young Griff landed more blows, though Ducks were harder. After a while,
the bigger man began to tire. His cuts came a little slower, a little lower. Young Griff turned them all and
launched a furious attack that forced Ser Rolly back. When they reached the stern, the lad tied up their
blades and slammed a shoulder into Duck, and the big man went into the river.

He came up sputtering and cursing, bellowing for someone to fish him out before a snapper ate
his privates. Tyrion tossed a line to him. Ducks should swim better than that, he said as he and Yandry
were hauling the knight back aboard the Shy Maid.
Ser Rolly grabbed Tyrion by the collar. Let us see how dwarfs swim, he said, chucking him
headlong into the Rhoyne.
The dwarf laughed last; he could paddle passably well, and did  until his legs began to cramp.
Young Griff extended him a pole. You are not the first to try and drown me, he told Duck, as he was
pouring river water from his boot. My father threw me down a well the day I was born, but I was so
ugly that the water witch who lived down there spat me back. He pulled off the other boot, then did a
cartwheel along the deck, spraying all of them.
Young Griff laughed. Where did you learn that?
The mummers taught me, he lied. My mother loved me best of all her children because I was
so small. She nursed me at her breast till I was seven. That made my brothers jealous, so they stuffed
me in a sack and sold me to a mummers troupe. When I tried to run off the master mummer cut off half
my nose, so I had no choice but to go with them and learn to be amusing.
The truth was rather different. His uncle had taught him a bit of tumbling when he was six or
seven. Tyrion had taken to it eagerly. For half a year he cartwheeled his merry way about Casterly Rock,
bringing smiles to the faces of septons, squires, and servants alike. Even Cersei laughed to see him once
or twice.
All that ended abruptly the day his father returned from a sojourn in Kings Landing. That night
at supper Tyrion surprised his sire by walking the length of the high table on his hands. Lord Tywin was
not pleased. The gods made you a dwarf. Must you be a fool as well? You were born a lion, not a
monkey.
And youre a corpse, Father, so Ill caper as I please. You have a gift for making men smile,
Septa Lemore told Tyrion as he was drying off his toes. You should thank the Father Above. He gives
gifts to all his children.
He does, he agreed pleasantly. And when I die, please let them bury with me a crossbow, so I
can thank the Father Above for his gifts the same way I thanked the father below.
His clothing was still soaked from his involuntary swim, clinging to his arms and legs
uncomfortably. Whilst Young Griff went off with Septa Lemore to be instructed in the mysteries of the
Faith, Tyrion stripped off the wet clothes and donned dry ones. Duck had a good guffaw when he
emerged on deck again. He could not blame him. Dressed as he was, he made a comic sight. His doublet
was divided down the middle; the left side was purple velvet with bronze studs; the right, yellow wool
embroidered in green floral patterns. His breeches were similarly split; the right leg was solid green, the
left leg striped in red and white. One of Illyrios chests had been packed with a childs clothing, musty
but well made. Septa Lemore had slit each garment apart, then sewn them back together, joining half of

this to half of that to fashion a crude motley. Griff had even insisted that Tyrion help with the cutting
and sewing. No doubt he meant for it to be humbling, but Tyrion enjoyed the needlework. Lemore was
always pleasant company, despite her penchant for scolding him whenever he said something rude
about the gods. If Griff wants to cast me as the fool, Ill play the game. Somewhere, he knew, Lord Tywin
Lannister was horrified, and that took the sting from it.
His other duty was anything but foolish. Duck has his sword, I my quill and parchment. Griff had
commanded him to set down all he knew of dragonlore. The task was a formidable one, but the dwarf
labored at it every day, scratching away as best he could as he sat cross-legged on the cabin roof.
Tyrion had read much and more of dragons through the years. The greater part of those
accounts were idle tales and could not be relied on, and the books that Illyrio had provided them were
not the ones he might have wished for. What he really wanted was the complete text of The Fires of the
Freehold, Galendros history of Valyria. No complete copy was known to Westeros, however; even the
Citadels lacked twenty-seven scrolls. They must have a library in Old Volantis, surely. I may find a better
copy there, if I can find a way inside the Black Walls to the citys heart.
He was less hopeful concerning Septon Barths Dragons, Wyrms, and Wyverns: Their Unnatural
History. Barth had been a blacksmiths son who rose to be Kings Hand during the reign of Jaehaerys the
Conciliator. His enemies always claimed he was more sorcerer than septon. Baelor the Blessed had
ordered all Barths writings destroyed when he came to the Iron Throne. Ten years ago, Tyrion had read
a fragment of Unnatural History that had eluded the Blessed Baelor, but he doubted that any of Barths
work had found its way across the narrow sea. And of course there was even less chance of his coming
on the fragmentary, anonymous, blood-soaked tome sometimes called Blood and Fire and sometimes
The Death of Dragons, the only surviving copy of which was supposedly hidden away in a locked vault
beneath the Citadel.
When the Halfmaester appeared on deck, yawning, the dwarf was writing down what he
recalled concerning the mating habits of dragons, on which subject Barth, Munkun, and Thomax held
markedly divergent views. Haldon stalked to the stern to piss down at the sun where it shimmered on
the water, breaking apart with every puff of wind. We should reach the junction with the Noyne by
evening, Yollo, the Halfmaester called out.
Tyrion glanced up from his writing. My name is Hugor. Yollo is hiding in my breeches. Shall I let
him out to play?
Best not. You might frighten the turtles. Haldons smile was as sharp as the blade of a dagger.
What did you tell me was the name of that street in Lannisport where you were born, Yollo?
It was an alley. It had no name. Tyrion took a mordant pleasure in inventing the details of the
colorful life of Hugor Hill, also known as Yollo, a bastard out of Lannisport. The best lies are seasoned
with a bit of truth. The dwarf knew he sounded like a westerman, and a highborn westerman at that, so
Hugor must needs be some lordlings by-blow. Born in Lannisport because he knew that city better than
Oldtown or Kings Landing, and cities were where most dwarfs ended up, even those whelped by

Goodwife Bumpkin in the turnip patch. The countryside had no grotes-queries or mummer shows 
though it did have wells aplenty, to swallow up unwanted kittens, three-headed calves, and babes like
him.
I see you have been defacing more good parchment, Yollo. Haldon laced up his breeches.
Not all of us can be half a maester. Tyrions hand was cramping. He put his quill aside and
flexed his stubby fingers. Fancy another game of cyvasse? The Halfmaester always defeated him, but it
was a way to pass the time.
This evening. Will you join us for Young Griffs lesson?
Why not? Someone needs to correct your errors.
There were four cabins on the Shy Maid. Yandry and Ysilla shared one,
Griff and Young Griff another. Septa Lemore had a cabin to herself, as did Haldon. The
Halfmaesters cabin was the largest of the four. One wall was lined with bookshelves and bins stacked
with old scrolls and parchments; another held racks of ointments, herbs, and potions. Golden light
slanted through the wavy yellow glass of the round window. The furnishings included a bunk, a writing
desk, a chair, a stool, and the Halfmaesters cyvasse table, strewn with carved wooden pieces.
The lesson began with languages. Young Griff spoke the Common Tongue as if he had been born
to it, and was fluent in High Valyrian, the low dialects of Pentos, Tyrosh, Myr, and Lys, and the trade talk
of sailors. The Volantene dialect was as new to him as it was to Tyrion, so every day they learned a few
more words whilst Haldon corrected their mistakes. Meereenese was harder; its roots were Valyrian as
well, but the tree had been grafted onto the harsh, ugly tongue of Old Ghis. You need a bee up your
nose to speak Ghiscari properly, Tyrion complained. Young Griff laughed, but the Halfmaester only said,
Again. The boy obeyed, though he rolled his eyes along with his zzzs this time. He has a better ear than
me, Tyrion was forced to admit, though Ill wager my tongue is still more nimble.
Geometry followed languages. There the boy was less adroit, but Haldon was a patient teacher,
and Tyrion was able to make himself of use as well. He had learned the mysteries of squares and circles
and triangles from his fathers maesters at Casterly Rock, and they came back more quickly than he
would have thought.
By the time they turned to history, Young Griff was growing restive. We were discussing the
history of Volantis, Haldon said to him. Can you tell Yollo the difference between a tiger and an
elephant?
Volantis is the oldest of the Nine Free Cities, first daughter of Valyria, the lad replied, in a
bored tone. After the Doom it pleased the Volantenes to consider themselves the heirs of the Freehold
and rightful rulers of the world, but they were divided as to how dominion might best be achieved. The
Old Blood favored the sword, while the merchants and moneylenders advocated trade. As they
contended for rule of the city, the factions became known as the tigers and elephants, respectively.

The tigers held sway for almost a century after the Doom of Valyria. For a time they were
successful. A Volantene fleet took Lys and a Volantene army captured Myr, and for two generations all
three cities were ruled from within the Black Walls. That ended when the tigers tried to swallow Tyrosh.
Pentos came into the war on the Tyroshi side, along with the Westerosi Storm King. Braavos provided a
Lyseni exile with a hundred warships, Aegon Targaryen flew forth from Dragonstone on the Black Dread,
and Myr and Lys rose up in rebellion. The war left the Disputed Lands a waste, and freed Lys and Myr
from the yoke. The tigers suffered other defeats as well. The fleet they sent to reclaim Valyria vanished
in the Smoking Sea. Qohor and Norvos broke their power on the Rhoyne when the fire galleys fought on
Dagger Lake. Out of the east came the Dothraki, driving smallfolk from their hovels and nobles from
their estates, until only grass and ruins remained from the forest of Qohor to the headwaters of the
Selhoru. After a century of war, Volantis found herself broken, bankrupt, and depopulated. It was then
that the elephants rose up. They have held sway ever since. Some years the tigers elect a triarch, and
some years they do not, but never more than one, so the elephants have ruled the city for three
hundred years.
Just so, said Haldon. And the present triarchs?
Malaquo is a tiger, Nyessos and Doniphos are elephants.
And what lesson can we draw from Volantene history?
If you want to conquer the world, you best have dragons.
Tyrion could not help but laugh.
Later, when Young Griff went up on deck to help Yandry with the sails and poles, Haldon set up
his cyvasse table for their game. Tyrion watched with mismatched eyes, and said, The boy is bright. You
have done well by him. Half the lords in Westeros are not so learned, sad to say. Languages, history,
songs, sums  a heady stew for some sellswords son.
A book can be as dangerous as a sword in the right hands, said Haldon. Try to give me a
better battle this time, Yollo. You play cyvasse as badly as you tumble.
I am trying to lull you into a false sense of confidence, said Tyrion, as they arranged their tiles
on either side of a carved wooden screen. You think you taught me how to play, but things are not
always as they seem. Perhaps I learned the game from the cheesemonger, have you considered that?
Illyrio does not play cyvasse.
No, thought the dwarf, he plays the game of thrones, and you and Griff and Duck are only pieces,
to be moved where he will and sacrificed at need, just as he sacrificed Viserys. The blame must fall on
you, then. If I play badly, it is your doing.
The Halfmaester chuckled. Yollo, I shall miss you when the pirates cut your throat.

Where are these famous pirates? I am beginning to think that you and Illyrio made them all
up.
They are thickest on the stretch of river between Ar Noy and the Sorrows. Above the ruins of Ar
Noy, the Qohorik rule the river, and below the Sorrows the galleys of Volantis hold sway, but neither city
claims the waters in between, so the pirates have made it their own. Dagger Lake is full of islands where
they lurk in hidden caves and secret strongholds. Are you ready?
For you? Beyond a doubt. For the pirates? Less so.
Haldon removed the screen. Each of them contemplated the others opening array. You are
learning, the Halfmaester said.
Tyrion almost grabbed his dragon but thought better of it. Last game he had brought her out too
soon and lost her to a trebuchet. If we do meet these fabled pirates, I may join up with them. Ill tell
them that my name is Hugor Halfmaester. He moved his light horse toward Haldons mountains.
Haldon answered with an elephant. Hugor Halfwit would suit you better.
I only need half my wits to be a match for you. Tyrion moved up his heavy horse to support
the light. Perhaps you would care to wager on the outcome?
The Halfmaester arched an eyebrow. How much?
I have no coin. Well play for secrets.
Griff would cut my tongue out.
Afraid, are you? I would be if I were you.
The day you defeat me at cyvasse will be the day turtles crawl out my arse. The Halfmaester
moved his spears. You have your wager, little man.
Tyrion stretched a hand out for his dragon.
It was three hours later when the little man finally crept back up on deck to empty his bladder.
Duck was helping Yandry wrestle down the sail, while Ysilla took the tiller. The sun hung low above the
reed-beds along the western bank, as the wind began to gust and rip. I need that skin of wine, the dwarf
thought. His legs were cramped from squatting on that stool, and he felt so light-headed that he was
lucky not to fall into the river.
Yollo, Duck called. Wheres Haldon?
Hes taken to his bed, in some discomfort. There are turtles crawling out his arse. He left the
knight to sort that out and crawled up the ladder to the cabin roof. Off to the east, there was darkness
gathering behind a rocky island.

Septa Lemore found him there. Can you feel the storms in the air, Hugor Hill? Dagger Lake is
ahead of us, where pirates prowl. And beyond that lie the Sorrows.
Not mine. I carry mine own sorrows with me, everywhere I go. He thought of Tysha and
wondered where whores go. Why not Volantis? Perhaps Ill find her there. A man should cling to hope.
He wondered what he would say to her. I am sorry that I let them rape you, love. I thought you were a
whore. Can you find it in your heart to forgive me? I want to go back to our cottage, to the way it was
when we were man and wife.
The island fell away behind them. Tyrion saw ruins rising along the eastern bank: crooked walls
and fallen towers, broken domes and rows of rotted wooden pillars, streets choked by mud and
overgrown with purple moss. Another dead city, ten times as large as Ghoyan Drohe. Turtles lived there
now, big bonesnappers. The dwarf could see them basking in the sun, brown and black hummocks with
jagged ridges down the center of their shells. A few saw the Shy Maid and slid down into the water,
leaving ripples in their wake. This would not be a good place for a swim.
Then, through the twisted half-drowned trees and wide wet streets, he glimpsed the silvery
sheen of sunlight upon water. Another river, he knew at once, rushing toward the Rhoyne. The ruins
grew taller as the land grew narrower, until the city ended on a point of land where stood the remains
of a colossal palace of pink and green marble, its collapsed domes and broken spires looming large
above a row of covered archways. Tyrion saw more snappers sleeping in the slips where half a hundred
ships might once have docked. He knew where he was then. That was Nymerias palace, and this is all
that remains of Ny Sar, her city.
Yollo, shouted Yandry as the Shy Maid passed the point, tell me again of those Westerosi
rivers as big as Mother Rhoyne.
I did not know, he called back. No river in the Seven Kingdoms is half so wide as this. The
new river that had joined them was a close twin to the one they had been sailing down, and that one
alone had almost matched the Mander or the Trident.
This is Ny Sar, where the Mother gathers in her Wild Daughter, Noyne, said Yandry, but she
will not reach her widest point until she meets her other daughters. At Dagger Lake the Qhoyne comes
rushing in, the Darkling Daughter, full of gold and amber from the Axe and pine-cones from the Forest of
Qohor. South of there the Mother meets Lhorulu, the Smiling Daughter from the Golden Fields. Where
they join once stood Chroyane, the festival city, where the streets were made of water and the houses
made of gold. Then south and east again for long leagues, until at last comes creeping in Selhoru, the
Shy Daughter who hides her course in reeds and writhes. There Mother Rhoyne waxes so wide that a
man upon a boat in the center of the stream cannot see a shore to either side. You shall see, my little
friend.
I shall, the dwarf was thinking, when he spied a rippling ahead not six yards from the boat. He
was about to point it out to Lemore when it came to the surface with a wash of water that rocked the
Shy Maid sideways.

It was another turtle, a horned turtle of enormous size, its dark green shell mottled with brown
and overgrown with water moss and crusty black river molluscs. It raised its head and bellowed, a
deep-throated thrumming roar louder than any warhorn that Tyrion had ever heard. We are blessed,
Ysilla was crying loudly, as tears streamed down her face. We are blessed, we are blessed.
Duck was hooting, and Young Griff too. Haldon came out on deck to learn the cause of the
commotion  but too late. The giant turtle had vanished below the water once again. What was the
cause of all that noise? the Halfmaester asked.
A turtle, said Tyrion. A turtle bigger than this boat.
It was him, cried Yandry. The Old Man of the River.
And why not? Tyrion grinned. Gods and wonders always appear, to attend the birth of kings.
DAVOS
The Merry Midwife stole into White Harbor on the evening tide, her patched sail rippling with
every gust of wind.
She was an old cog, and even in her youth no one had ever called her pretty. Her figurehead
showed a laughing woman holding an infant by one foot, but the womans cheeks and the babes
bottom were both pocked by wormholes. Uncounted layers of drab brown paint covered her hull; her
sails were grey and tattered. She was not a ship to draw a second glance, unless it was to wonder how
she stayed afloat. The Merry Midwife was known in White Harbor too. For years she had plied a humble
trade between there and Sisterton.
It was not the sort of arrival that Davos Seaworth had anticipated when hed set sail with Salla
and his fleet. All this had seemed simpler then. The ravens had not brought King Stannis the allegiance
of White Harbor, so His Grace would send an envoy to treat with Lord Manderly in person. As a show of
strength, Davos would arrive aboard Sallas galleas Valyrian, with the rest of the Lysene fleet behind her.
Every hull was striped: black and yellow, pink and blue, green and white, purple and gold. The Lyseni
loved bright hues, and Salladhor Saan was the most colorful of all. Salladhor the Splendid, Davos
thought, but the storms wrote an end to all of that.
Instead he would smuggle himself into the city, as he might have done twenty years before.
Until he knew how matters stood here, it was more prudent to play the common sailor, not the lord.
White Harbors walls of whitewashed stone rose before them, on the eastern shore where the
White Knife plunged into the firth. Some of the citys defenses had been strengthened since the last
time Davos had been here, half a dozen years before. The jetty that divided the inner and outer harbors
had been fortified with a long stone wall, thirty feet tall and almost a mile long, with towers every

hundred yards. There was smoke rising from Seal Rock as well, where once there had been only ruins.
That could be good or bad, depending on what side Lord Wyman chooses.
Davos had always been fond of this city, since first hed come here as a cabin boy on Cobblecat.
Though small compared to Oldtown and Kings Landing, it was clean and well-ordered, with wide
straight cobbled streets that made it easy for a man to find his way. The houses were built of
whitewashed stone, with steeply pitched roofs of dark grey slate. Roro Uhoris, the Cobblecats cranky
old master, used to claim that he could tell one port from another just by the way they smelled. Cities
were like women, he insisted; each one had its own unique scent. Oldtown was as flowery as a
perfumed dowager. Lannisport was a milkmaid, fresh and earthy, with woodsmoke in her hair. Kings
Landing reeked like some unwashed whore. But White Harbors scent was sharp and salty, and a little
fishy too. She smells the way a mermaid ought to smell, Roro said. She smells of the sea.
She still does, thought Davos, but he could smell the peat smoke drifting off Seal Rock too. The
sea stone dominated the approaches to the outer harbor, a massive grey-green upthrust looming fifty
feet above the waters. Its top was crowned with a circle of weathered stones, a ringfort of the First Men
that had stood desolate and abandoned for hundreds of years. It was not abandoned now. Davos could
see scorpions and spitfires behind the standing stones, and crossbowmen peering between them. It
must be cold up there, and wet. On all his previous visits, seals could be seen basking on the broken
rocks below. The Blind Bastard always made him count them whenever the Cobblecat set sail from
White Harbor; the more seals there were, Roro said, the more luck they would have on their voyage.
There were no seals now. The smoke and the soldiers had frightened them away. A wiser man would see
a caution in that. If I had a thimble full of sense, I would have gone with Salla. He could have made his
way back south, to Marya and their sons. I have lost four sons in the kings service, and my fifth serves as
his squire. I should have the right to cherish the two boys who still remain. It has been too long since I
saw them.
At Eastwatch, the black brothers told him there was no love between the Manderlys of White
Harbor and the Boltons of the Dreadfort. The Iron Throne had raised Roose Bolton up to Warden of the
North, so it stood to reason that Wyman Manderly should declare for Stannis. White Harbor cannot
stand alone. The city needs an ally, a protector. Lord Wyman needs King Stannis as much as Stannis
needs him. Or so it seemed at Eastwatch.
Sisterton had undermined those hopes. If Lord Borrell told it true, if the Manderlys meant to join
their strength to the Boltons and the Freys  no, he would not dwell on that. He would know the truth
soon enough. He prayed he had not come too late.
That jetty wall conceals the inner harbor, he realized, as the Merry Midwife was pulling down
her sail. The outer harbor was larger, but the inner harbor offered better anchorage, sheltered by the
city wall on one side and the looming mass of the Wolfs Den on another, and now by the jetty wall as
well. At Eastwatch-by-the-Sea, Cotter Pyke told Davos that Lord Wyman was building war galleys. There
could have been a score of ships concealed behind those walls, waiting only a command to put to sea.

Behind the citys thick white walls, the New Castle rose proud and pale upon its hill. Davos could
see the domed roof of the Sept of the Snows as well, surmounted by tall statues of the Seven. The
Manderlys had brought the Faith north with them when they were driven from the Reach. White Harbor
had its godswood too, a brooding tangle of root and branch and stone locked away behind the
crumbling black walls of the Wolfs Den, an ancient fortress that served only as a prison now. But for the
most part the septons ruled here.
The merman of House Manderly was everywhere in evidence, flying from the towers of the New
Castle, above the Seal Gate, and along the city walls. At Eastwatch, the northmen insisted that White
Harbor would never abandon its allegiance to Winterfell, but Davos saw no sign of the direwolf of Stark.
There are no lions either. Lord Wyman cannot have declared for Tommen yet, or he would have raised
his standard.
The dockside wharves were swarming. A clutter of small boats were tied up along the fish
market, off-loading their catches. He saw three river runners too, long lean boats built tough to brave
the swift currents and rocky shoots of the White Knife. It was the seagoing vessels that interested him
most, however; a pair of carracks as drab and tattered as the Merry Midwife, the trading galley Storm
Dancer, the cogs Brave Magister and Horn of Plenty, a galleas from Braavos marked by her purple hull
and sails 
 and there beyond, the warship.
The sight of her sent a knife through his hopes. Her hull was black and gold, her figurehead a
lion with an upraised paw. Lionstar, read the letters on her stern, beneath a fluttering banner that bore
the arms of the boy king on the Iron Throne. A year ago, he would not have been able to read them, but
Maester Pylos had taught him some of the letters back on Drag-onstone. For once, the reading gave him
little pleasure. Davos had been praying that the galley had been lost in the same storms that had
ravaged Sallas fleet, but the gods had not been so kind. The Freys were here, and he would need to face
them.
The Merry Midwife tied up to the end of a weathered wooden pier in the outer harbor, well
away from Lionstar. As her crew made her fast to the pilings and lowered a gangplank, her captain
sauntered up to Davos. Casso Mogat was a mongrel of the narrow sea, fathered on a Sisterton whore by
an Ibbenese whaler. Only five feet tall and very hirsute, he dyed his hair and whiskers a mossy green. It
made him look like a tree stump in yellow boots. Despite his appearance, he seemed a good sailor,
though a hard master to his crew. How long will you be gone?
A day at least. It may be longer. Davos had found that lords liked to keep you waiting. They did
it to make you anxious, he suspected, and to demonstrate their power.
The Midwife will linger here three days. No longer. They will look for me back in Sisterton.
If things go well, I could be back by the morrow.
And if these things go badly?

I may not be back at all. You need not wait for me.
A pair of customs men were clambering aboard as he went down the gangplank, but neither
gave him so much as a glance. They were there to see the captain and inspect the hold; common
seamen did not concern them, and few men looked as common as Davos. He was of middling height, his
shrewd peasants face weathered by wind and sun, his grizzled beard and brown hair well salted with
grey. His garb was plain as well: old boots, brown breeches and blue tunic, a woolen mantle of undyed
wool, fastened with a wooden clasp. He wore a pair of salt-stained leather gloves to hide the stubby
fingers of the hand that Stannis had shortened, so many years ago. Davos hardly looked a lord, much
less a Kings Hand. That was all to the good until he knew how matters stood here.
He made his way along the wharf and through the fish market. The Brave Magister was taking
on some mead. The casks stood four high along the pier. Behind one stack he glimpsed three sailors
throwing dice. Farther on the fishwives were crying the days catch, and a boy was beating time on a
drum as a shabby old bear danced in a circle for a ring of river runners. Two spearmen had been posted
at the Seal Gate, with the badge of House Manderly upon their breasts, but they were too intent on
flirting with a dockside whore to pay Davos any mind. The gate was open, the portcullis raised. He joined
the traffic passing through.
Inside was a cobbled square with a fountain at its center. A stone merman rose from its waters,
twenty feet tall from tail to crown. His curly beard was green and white with lichen, and one of the
prongs of his trident had broken off before Davos had been born, yet somehow he still managed to
impress. Old Fishfoot was what the locals called him. The square was named for some dead lord, but no
one ever called it anything but Fishfoot Yard.
The Yard was teeming this afternoon. A woman was washing her small-clothes in Fishfoots
fountain and hanging them off his trident to dry. Beneath the arches of the peddlers colonnade the
scribes and money changers had set up for business, along with a hedge wizard, an herb woman, and a
very bad juggler. A man was selling apples from a barrow, and a woman was offering herring with
chopped onions. Chickens and children were everywhere underfoot. The huge oak-and-iron doors of the
Old Mint had always been closed when Davos had been in Fishfoot Yard before, but today they stood
open. Inside he glimpsed hundreds of women, children, and old men, huddled on the floor on piles of
furs. Some had little cookfires going.
Davos stopped beneath the colonnade and traded a halfpenny for an apple. Are people living in
the Old Mint? he asked the apple seller.
Them as have no other place to live. Smallfolk from up the White Knife, most o them.
Hornwoods people too. With that Bastard o Bolton running loose, they all want to be inside the walls. I
dont know what his lordship means to do with all o them. Most turned up with no moren the rags on
their backs.

Davos felt a pang of guilt. They came here for refuge, to a city untouched by the fighting, and
here I turn up to drag them back into the war. He took a bite of the apple and felt guilty about that as
well. How do they eat?
The apple seller shrugged. Some beg. Some steal. Lots o young girls taking up the trade, the
way girls always do when its all they got to sell. Any boy stands five feet tall can find a place in his
lordships barracks, long as he can hold a spear.
Hes raising men, then. That might be good  or bad, depending. The apple was dry and mealy,
but Davos made himself take another bite. Does Lord Wyman mean to join the Bastard?
Well, said the apple seller, the next time his lordship comes down here hunkering for an
apple, Ill be sure and ask him.
I heard his daughter was to wed some Frey.
His granddaughter. I heard that too, but his lordship forgot t invite me to the wedding. Here,
you going to finish that? Ill take the rest back. Them seeds is good.
Davos tossed him back the core. A bad apple, but it was worth half a penny to learn that
Manderly is raising men. He made his way around Old Fishfoot, past where a young girl was selling cups
of fresh milk from her nanny goat. He was remembering more of the city now that he was here. Down
past where Old Fishfoots trident pointed was an alley where they sold fried cod, crisp and golden brown
outside and flaky white within. Over there was a brothel, cleaner than most, where a sailor could enjoy a
woman without fear of being robbed or killed. Off the other way, in one of those houses that clung to
the walls of the Wolfs Den like barnacles to an old hull, there used to be a brewhouse where they made
a black beer so thick and tasty that a cask of it could fetch as much as Arbor gold in Braavos and the Port
of Ibben, provided the locals left the brewer any to sell.
It was wine he wanted, thoughsour, dark, and dismal. He strolled across the yard and down a
flight of steps, to a winesink called the Lazy Eel, underneath a warehouse full of sheepskins. Back in his
smuggling days, the Eel had been renowned for offering the oldest whores and vilest wine in White
Harbor, along with meat pies full of lard and gristle that were inedible on their best days and poisonous
on their worst. With fare like that, most locals shunned the place, leaving it for sailors who did not know
any better. You never saw a city guardsman down in the Lazy Eel, or a customs officer.
Some things never change. Inside the Eel, time stood still. The barrel-vaulted ceiling was stained
black with soot, the floor was hard-packed earth, the air smelled of smoke and spoiled meat and stale
vomit. The fat tallow candles on the tables gave off more smoke than light, and the wine that Davos
ordered looked more brown than red in the gloom. Four whores were seated near the door, drinking.
One gave him a hopeful smile as he entered. When Davos shook his head, the woman said something
that made her companions laugh. After that none of them paid him any mind.

Aside from the whores and the proprietor, Davos had the Eel to himself. The cellar was large,
full of nooks and shadowed alcoves where a man could be alone. He took his wine to one of them and
sat with his back to a wall to wait.
Before long, he found himself staring at the hearth. The red woman could see the future in the
fire, but all that Davos Seaworth ever saw were the shadows of the past: the burning ships, the fiery
chain, the green shadows flashing across the belly of the clouds, the Red Keep brooding over all. Davos
was a simple man, raised up by chance and war and Stannis. He did not understand why the gods would
take four lads as young and strong as his sons, yet spare their weary father. Some nights he thought he
had been left to rescue Edric Storm  but by now King Roberts bastard boy was safe in the Stepstones,
yet Davos still remained. Do the gods have some other task for me? he wondered. If so, White Harbor
may be some part of it. He tried the wine, then poured half his cup onto the floor beside his foot.
As dusk fell outside, the benches at the Eel began to fill with sailors. Davos called to the
proprietor for another cup. When he brought it, he brought him a candle too. You want food? the man
asked. We got meat pies.
What kind of meat is in them?
The usual kind. Its good.
The whores laughed. Its grey, he means, one said. Shut your bloody yap. You eat them.
I eat all kinds o shit. Dont mean I like it.
Davos blew the candle out as soon as the proprietor moved off, and sat back in the shadows.
Seamen were the worst gossips in the world when the wine was flowing, even wine as cheap as this. All
he need do was listen.
Most of what he heard hed learned in Sisterton, from Lord Godric or the denizens of the Belly
of the Whale. Tywin Lannister was dead, butchered by his dwarf son; his corpse had stunk so badly that
no one had been able to enter the Great Sept of Baelor for days afterward; the Lady of the Eyrie had
been murdered by a singer; Littlefinger ruled the Vale now, but Bronze Yohn Royce had sworn to bring
him down; Balon Greyjoy had died as well, and his brothers were fighting for the Seastone Chair; Sandor
Clegane had turned outlaw and was plundering and killing in the lands along the Trident; Myr and Lys
and Tyrosh were embroiled in another war; a slave revolt was raging in the east.
Other tidings were of greater interest. Robett Glover was in the city and had been trying to raise
men, with little success. Lord Manderly had turned a deaf ear to his pleas. White Harbor was weary of
war, he was reported to have said. That was bad. The Ryswells and the Dustins had surprised the
ironmen on the Fever River and put their longships to the torch. That was worse. And now the Bastard
of Bolton was riding south with Hother Umber to join them for an attack on Moat Cailin. The
Whoresbane his own self, claimed a riverman whod just brought a load of hides and timber down the
White Knife, with three hundred spear-men and a hundred archers. Some Hornwood men have joined
them, and Cerwyns too. That was worst of all.

Lord Wyman best send some men to fight if he knows whats good for him, said the old fellow
at the end of the table. Lord Roose, hes the Warden now. White Harbors honor bound to answer his
summons.
What did any Bolton ever know o honor? said the Eels proprietor as he filled their cups with
more brown wine.
Lord Wyman wont go no place. Hes too bloody fat.
I heard how he was ailing. All he does is sleep and weep, they say. Hes too sick to get out o his
bed most days.
Too fat, you mean.
Fat or thins got naught to do with it, said the Eels proprietor. The lions got his son.
No one spoke of King Stannis. No one even seemed to know that His Grace had come north to
help defend the Wall. Wildlings and wights and giants had been all the talk at Eastwatch, but here no
one seemed to be giving them so much as a thought.
Davos leaned into the firelight. I thought the Freys killed his son. Thats what we heard in
Sisterton.
They killed Ser Wendel, said the proprietor. His bones are resting in the Snowy Sept with
candles all around them, if you want to have a look. Ser Wylis, though, hes still a captive.
Worse and worse. He had known that Lord Wyman had two sons, but hed thought that both of
them were dead. If the Iron Throne has a hostage  Davos had fathered seven sons himself, and lost
four on the Blackwater. He knew he would do whatever gods or men required of him to protect the
other three. Steffon and Stannis were thousands of leagues from the fighting and safe from harm, but
Devan was at Castle Black, a squire to the king. The king whose cause may rise or fall with White Harbor.
His fellow drinkers were talking about dragons now. Youre bloody mad, said an oarsman off
Storm Dancer. The Beggar Kings been dead for years. Some Dothraki horselord cut his head off.
So they tell us, said the old fellow. Might be theyre lying, though. He died half a world away,
if he died at all. Whos to say? If a king wanted me dead, might be Id oblige him and pretend to be a
corpse. None of us has ever seen his body.
I never saw Joffreys corpse, nor Roberts, growled the Eels proprietor. Maybe theyre all
alive as well. Maybe Baelor the Blesseds just been having him a little nap all these years.
The old fellow made a face. Prince Viserys werent the only dragon, were he? Are we sure they
killed Prince Rhaegars son? A babe, he was.
Wasnt there some princess too? asked a whore. She was the same one whod said the meat
was grey.

Two, said the old fellow. One was Rhaegars daughter, tother was his sister.
Daena, said the riverman. That was the sister. Daena of Dragon-stone. Or was it Daera?
Daena was old King Baelors wife, said the oarsman. I rowed on a ship named for her once.
The Princess Daena.
If she was a kings wife, shed be a queen.
Baelor never had a queen. He was holy.
Dont mean he never wed his sister, said the whore. He just never bedded her, is all. When
they made him king, he locked her up in a tower. His other sisters too. There was three.
Daenela, the proprietor said loudly. That was her name. The Mad Kings daughter, I mean,
not Baelors bloody wife.
Daenerys, Davos said. She was named for the Daenerys who wed the Prince of Dorne during
the reign of Daeron the Second. I dont know what became of her.
I do, said the man whod started all the talk of dragons, a Braavosi oarsman in a somber
woolen jack. When we were down to Pentos we moored beside a trader called the Sloe-Eyed Maid, and
I got to drinking with her captains steward. He told me a pretty tale about some slip of a girl who come
aboard in Qarth, to try and book passage back to Westeros for her and three dragons. Silver hair she
had, and purple eyes. I took her to the captain my own self, this steward swore to me, but he wasnt
having none of that. Theres more profit in cloves and saffron, he tells me, and spices wont set fire to
your sails. 
Laughter swept the cellar. Davos did not join in. He knew what had befallen the Sloe-Eyed Maid.
The gods were cruel to let a man sail across half the world, then send him chasing a false light when he
was almost home. That captain was a bolder man than me, he thought, as he made his way to the door.
One voyage to the east, and a man could live as rich as a lord until the end of his days. When hed been
younger, Davos had dreamed of making such voyages himself, but the years went dancing by like moths
around a flame, and somehow the time had never been quite right. One day, he told himself. One day
when the war is done and King Stannis sits the Iron Throne and has no more need of onion knights. Ill
take Devan with me. Steff and Stanny too if theyre old enough. Well see these dragons and all the
wonders of the world.
Outside the wind was gusting, making the flames shiver in the oil lamps that lit the yard. It had
grown colder since the sun went down, but Davos remembered Eastwatch, and how the wind would
come screaming off the Wall at night, knifing through even the warmest cloak to freeze a mans blood
right in his veins. White Harbor was a warm bath by comparison.
There were other places he might get his ears filled: an inn famous for its lamprey pies, the
alehouse where the wool factors and the customs men did their drinking, a mummers hall where

bawdy entertainments could be had for a few pennies. But Davos felt that he had heard enough. Ive
come too late. Old instinct made him reach for his chest, where once hed kept his fingerbones in a little
sack on a leather thong. There was nothing there. He had lost his luck in the fires of the Blackwater,
when hed lost his ship and sons.
What must I do now? He pulled his mantle tighter. Do I climb the hill and present myself at the
gates of the New Castle, to make a futile plea? Return to Sisterton? Make my way back to Marya and my
boys? Buy a horse and ride the kingsroad, to tell Stannis that he has no friends in White Harbor, and no
hope?
Queen Selyse had feasted Salla and his captains, the night before the fleet had set sail. Cotter
Pyke had joined them, and four other high officers of the Nights Watch. Princess Shireen had been
allowed to attend as well. As the salmon was being served, Ser Axell Florent had entertained the table
with the tale of a Targaryen princeling who kept an ape as a pet. This prince liked to dress the creature
in his dead sons clothes and pretend he was a child, Ser Axell claimed, and from time to time he would
propose marriages for him. The lords so honored always declined politely, but of course they did
decline. Even dressed in silk and velvet, an ape remains an ape, Ser Axell said. A wiser prince would
have known that you cannot send an ape to do a mans work. The queens men laughed, and several
grinned at Davos. I am no ape, hed thought. I am as much a lord as you, and a better man. But the
memory still stung.
The Seal Gate had been closed for the night. Davos would not be able to return to the Merry
Midwife till dawn. He was here for the night. He gazed up at Old Fishfoot with his broken trident. I have
come through rain and wrack and storm. I will not go back without doing what I came for, no matter
how hopeless it may seem. He might have lost his fingers and his luck, but he was no ape in velvet. He
was a Kings Hand.
Castle Stair was a street with steps, a broad white stone way that led up from the Wolfs Den by
the water to the New Castle on its hill. Marble mermaids lit the way as Davos climbed, bowls of burning
whale oil cradled in their arms. When he reached the top, he turned to look behind him. From here he
could see down into the harbors. Both of them. Behind the jetty wall, the inner harbor was crowded
with war galleys. Davos counted twenty-three. Lord Wyman was a fat man, but not an idle one, it
seemed.
The gates of the New Castle had been closed, but a postern opened when he shouted, and a
guard emerged to ask his business. Davos showed him the black and gold ribbon that bore the royal
seals. I need to see Lord Manderly at once, he said. My business is with him, and him alone.
DAENERYS

The dancers shimmered, their sleek shaved bodies covered with a fine sheen of oil. Blazing
torches whirled from hand to hand to the beat of drums and the trilling of a flute. Whenever two
torches crossed in the air, a naked girl leapt between them, spinning. The torchlight shone off oiled
limbs and breasts and buttocks.
The three men were erect. The sight of their arousal was arousing, though Daenerys Targaryen
found it comical as well. The men were all of a height, with long legs and flat bellies, every muscle as
sharply etched as if it had been chiseled out of stone. Even their faces looked the same, somehow 
which was passing strange, since one had skin as dark as ebony, while the second was as pale as milk,
and the third gleamed like burnished copper.
Are they meant to inflame me? Dany stirred amongst her silken cushions. Against the pillars her
Unsullied stood like statues in their spiked caps, their smooth faces expressionless. Not so the whole
men. Reznak mo Reznaks mouth was open, and his lips glistened wetly as he watched. Hizdahr zo Loraq
was saying something to the man beside him, yet all the time his eyes were on the dancing girls. The
Shavepates ugly, oily face was as stern as ever, but he missed nothing.
It was harder to know what her honored guest was dreaming. The pale, lean, hawk-faced man
who shared her high table was resplendent in robes of maroon silk and cloth-of-gold, his bald head
shining in the torchlight as he devoured a fig with small, precise, elegant bites. Opals winked along the
nose of Xaro Xhoan Daxos as his head turned to follow the dancers.
In his honor Daenerys had donned a Qartheen gown, a sheer confection of violet samite cut so
as to leave her left breast bare. Her silver-gold hair brushed lightly over her shoulder, falling almost to
her nipple. Half the men in the hall had stolen glances at her, but not Xaro. It was the same in Qarth. She
could not sway the merchant prince that way. Sway him I must, however. He had come from Qarth upon
the galleas Silken Cloud with thirteen galleys sailing attendance, his fleet an answered prayer. Meereens
trade had dwindled away to nothing since she had ended slavery, but Xaro had the power to restore it.
As the drums reached a crescendo, three of the girls leapt above the flames, spinning in the air.
The male dancers caught them about the waists and slid them down onto their members. Dany watched
as the women arched their backs and coiled their legs around their partners while the flutes wept and
the men thrust in time to the music. She had seen the act of love before; the Dothraki mated as openly
as their mares and stallions. This was the first time she had seen lust put to music, though.
Her face was warm. The wine, she told herself. Yet somehow she found herself thinking of
Daario Naharis. His messenger had come that morning. The Stormcrows were returning from Lhazar.
Her captain was riding back to her, bringing her the friendship of the Lamb Men. Food and trade, she
reminded herself. He did not fail me, nor will he. Daario will help me save my city. The queen longed to
see his face, to stroke his three-pronged beard, to tell him her troubles  but the Stormcrows were still
many days away, beyond the Khyzai Pass, and she had a realm to rule.
Smoke hung between the purple pillars. The dancers knelt, heads bowed. You were splendid,
Dany told them. Seldom have I seen such grace, such beauty. She beckoned to Reznak mo Reznak, and

the seneschal scurried to her side. Beads of sweat dotted his bald, wrinkled head. Escort our guests to
the baths, that they may refresh themselves, and bring them food and drink.
It shall be my great honor, Magnificence.
Daenerys held out her cup for Irri to refill. The wine was sweet and strong, redolent with the
smell of eastern spices, much superior to the thin Ghiscari wines that had filled her cup of late. Xaro
perused the fruits on the platter Jhiqui offered him and chose a persimmon. Its orange skin matched the
color of the coral in his nose. He took a bite and pursed his lips. Tart.
Would my lord prefer something sweeter?
Sweetness cloys. Tart fruit and tart women give life its savor. Xaro took another bite, chewed,
swallowed. Daenerys, sweet queen, I cannot tell you what pleasure it gives me to bask once more in
your presence. A child departed Qarth, as lost as she was lovely. I feared she was sailing to her doom,
yet now I find her here enthroned, mistress of an ancient city, surrounded by a mighty host that she
raised up out of dreams.
No, she thought, out of blood and fire. I am glad you came to me. It is good to see your face
again, my friend. I will not trust you, but I need you. I need your Thirteen, I need your ships, I need your
trade.
For centuries Meereen and her sister cities Yunkai and Astapor had been the linchpins of the
slave trade, the place where Dothraki khals and the corsairs of the Basilisk Isles sold their captives and
the rest of the world came to buy. Without slaves, Meereen had little to offer traders. Copper was
plentiful in the Ghiscari hills, but the metal was not as valuable as it had been when bronze ruled the
world. The cedars that had once grown tall along the coast grew no more, felled by the axes of the Old
Empire or consumed by dragonfire when Ghis made war against Valyria. Once the trees had gone, the
soil baked beneath the hot sun and blew away in thick red clouds. It was these calamities that
transformed my people into slavers, Galazza Galare had told her, at the Temple of the Graces. And I am
the calamity that will change these slavers back into people, Dany had sworn to herself.
I had to come, said Xaro in a languid tone. Even far away in Qarth, fearful tales had reached
my ears. I wept to hear them. It is said that your enemies have promised wealth and glory and a
hundred virgin slave girls to any man who slays you.
The Sons of the Harpy. How does he know that? They scrawl on walls by night and cut the
throats of honest freedmen as they sleep. When the sun comes up they hide like roaches. They fear my
Brazen Beasts. Skahaz mo Kandaq had given her the new watch she had asked for, made up in equal
numbers of freedmen and shavepate Meereenese. They walked the streets both day and night, in dark
hoods and brazen masks. The Sons of the Harpy had promised grisly death to any traitor who dared
serve the dragon queen, and to their kith and kin as well, so the Shavepates men went about as jackals,
owls, and other beasts, keeping their true faces hidden. I might have cause to fear the Sons if they saw

me wandering alone through the streets, but only if it was night and I was naked and unarmed. They are
craven creatures.
A cravens knife can slay a queen as easily as a heros. I would sleep more soundly if I knew my
hearts delight had kept her fierce horselords close around her. In Qarth, you had three bloodriders who
never left your side. Wherever have they gone?
Aggo, Jhoqo, and Rakharo still serve me. He is playing games with me. Dany could play as well.
I am only a young girl and know little of such things, but older, wiser men tell me that to hold Meereen
I must control its hinterlands, all the land west of Lhazar as far south as the Yunkish hills.
Your hinterlands are not precious to me. Your person is. Should any ill befall you, this world
would lose its savor.
My lord is good to care so much, but I am well protected. Dany gestured toward where
Barristan Selmy stood with one hand resting on his sword hilt. Barristan the Bold, they call him. Twice
he has saved me from assassins.
Xaro gave Selmy a cursory inspection. Barristan the Old, did you say? Your bear knight was
younger, and devoted to you.
I do not wish to speak of Jorah Mormont.
To be sure. The man was coarse and hairy. The merchant prince leaned across the table. Let
us speak instead of love, of dreams and desire and Daenerys, the fairest woman in this world. I am drunk
with the sight of you.
She was no stranger to the overblown courtesies of Qarth. If you are drunk, blame the wine.
No wine is half so intoxicating as your beauty. My manse has seemed as empty as a tomb since
Daenerys departed, and all the pleasures of the Queen of Cities have been as ashes in my mouth. Why
did you abandon me?
I was hounded from your city in fear for my life. It was time. Qarth wished me gone.
Who? The Pureborn? They have water in their veins. The Spicers? There are curds between
their ears. And the Undying are all dead. You should have taken me to husband. I am almost certain that
I asked you for your hand. Begged you, even.
Only half a hundred times, Dany teased. You gave up too easily, my lord. For I must marry, all
agree.
A khaleesi must have a khal, said Irri, as she filled the queens cup once again. This is known.
Shall I ask again? wondered Xaro. No, I know that smile. It is a cruel queen who dices with
mens hearts. Humble merchants like myself are no more than stones beneath your jeweled sandals. A
single tear ran slowly down his pale white cheek.

Dany knew him too well to be moved. Qartheen men could weep at will. Oh, stop that. She
took a cherry from the bowl on the table and threw it at his nose. I may be a young girl, but I am not so
foolish as to wed a man who finds a fruit platter more enticing than my breast. I saw which dancers you
were watching.
Xaro wiped away his tear. The same ones Your Grace was following, I believe. You see, we are
alike. If you will not take me for your husband, I am content to be your slave.
I want no slave. I free you. His jeweled nose made a tempting target. This time Dany threw an
apricot at him.
Xaro caught it in the air and took a bite. Whence came this madness? Should I count myself
fortunate that you did not free my own slaves when you were my guest in Qarth?
I was a beggar queen and you were Xaro of the Thirteen, Dany thought, and all you wanted were
my dragons. Your slaves seemed well treated and content. It was not till Astapor that my eyes were
opened. Do you know how Unsullied are made and trained?
Cruelly, I have no doubt. When a smith makes a sword, he thrusts the blade into the fire, beats
on it with a hammer, then plunges it into iced water to temper the steel. If you would savor the sweet
taste of the fruit, you must water the tree.
This tree has been watered with blood.
How else, to grow a soldier? Your Radiance enjoyed my dancers. Would it surprise you to know
that they are slaves, bred and trained in Yunkai? They have been dancing since they were old enough to
walk. How else to achieve such perfection? He took a swallow of his wine. They are expert in all the
erotic arts as well. I had thought to make Your Grace a gift of them.
By all means. Dany was unsurprised. I shall free them.
That made him wince. And what would they do with freedom? As well give a fish a suit of mail.
They were made to dance.
Made by who? Their masters? Perhaps your dancers would sooner build or bake or farm. Have
you asked them?
Perhaps your elephants would sooner be nightingales. Instead of sweet song, Meereens nights
would be filled with thunderous trumpetings, and your trees would shatter beneath the weight of great
grey birds. Xaro sighed. Daenerys, my delight, beneath that sweet young breast beats a tender heart 
but take counsel from an older, wiser head. Things are not always as they seem. Much that may seem
evil can be good. Consider rain.
Rain? Does he take me for a fool, or just a child? We curse the rain when it falls upon our
heads, yet without it we should starve. The world needs rain  and slaves. You make a face, but it is
true. Consider Qarth. In art, music, magic, trade, all that makes us more than beasts, Qarth sits above

the rest of mankind as you sit at the summit of this pyramid  but below, in place of bricks, the
magnificence that is the Queen of Cities rests upon the backs of slaves. Ask yourself, if all men must grub
in the dirt for food, how shall any man lift his eyes to contemplate the stars? If each of us must break his
back to build a hovel, who shall raise the temples to glorify the gods? For some men to be great, others
must be enslaved.
He was too eloquent for her. Dany had no answer for him, only the raw feeling in her belly.
Slavery is not the same as rain, she insisted. I have been rained on and I have been sold. It is not the
same. No man wants to be owned.
Xaro gave a languid shrug. As it happens, when I came ashore in your sweet city, I chanced to
see upon the riverbank a man who had once been a guest in my manse, a merchant who dealt in rare
spices and choice wines. He was naked from the waist up, red and peeling, and seemed to be digging a
hole.
Not a hole. A ditch, to bring water from the river to the fields. We mean to plant beans. The
beanfields must have water.
How kind of my old friend to help with the digging. And how very unlike him. Is it possible he
was given no choice in the matter? No, surely not. You have no slaves in Meereen.
Dany flushed. Your friend is being paid with food and shelter. I cannot give him back his wealth.
Meereen needs beans more than it needs rare spices, and beans require water.
Would you set my dancers to digging ditches as well? Sweet queen, when he saw me, my old
friend fell to his knees and begged me to buy him as a slave and take him back to Qarth.
She felt as if hed slapped her. Buy him, then.
If it please you. I know it will please him. He put his hand upon her arm. There are truths only
a friend may tell you. I helped you when you came to Qarth a beggar, and I have crossed long leagues
and stormy seas to help you once again. Is there some place where we might speak frankly?
Dany could feel the warmth of his fingers. He was warm in Qarth as well, she recalled, until the
day he had no more use for me. She rose to her feet. Come, she said, and Xaro followed her through
the pillars, to the wide marble steps that led up to her private chambers at the apex of the pyramid.
Oh most beautiful of women, Xaro said, as they began to climb, there are footsteps behind
us. We are followed.
My old knight does not frighten you, surely? Ser Barristan is sworn to keep my secrets.
She took him out onto the terrace that overlooked the city. A full moon swam in the black sky
above Meereen. Shall we walk? Dany slipped her arm through his. The air was heavy with the scent of
night-blooming flowers. You spoke of help. Trade with me, then. Meereen has salt to sell, and wine 

Ghiscari wine? Xaro made a sour face. The sea provides all the salt that Qarth requires, but I
would gladly take as many olives as you cared to sell me. Olive oil as well.
I have none to offer. The slavers burned the trees. Olives had been grown along the shores of
Slavers Bay for centuries; but the Meereenese had put their ancient groves to the torch as Danys host
advanced on them, leaving her to cross a blackened wasteland. We are replanting, but it takes seven
years before an olive tree begins to bear, and thirty years before it can truly be called productive. What
of copper?
A pretty metal, but fickle as a woman. Gold, now  gold is sincere. Qarth will gladly give you
gold  for slaves.
Meereen is a free city of free men.
A poor city that once was rich. A hungry city that once was fat. A bloody city that once was
peaceful.
His accusations stung. There was too much truth in them. Meereen will be rich and fat and
peaceful once again, and free as well. Go to the Dothraki if you must have slaves.
Dothraki make slaves, Ghiscari train them. And to reach Qarth, the horselords must needs drive
their captives across the red waste. Hundreds would die, if not thousands  and many horses too, which
is why no khal will risk it. And there is this: Qarth wants no khalasars seething round our walls. The
stench of all those horses  meaning no offense, Khaleesi.
A horse has an honest smell. That is more than can be said of some great lords and merchant
princes.
Xaro took no notice of the sally. Daenerys, let me be honest with you, as befits a friend. You
will not make Meereen rich and fat and peaceful. You will only bring it to destruction, as you did
Astapor. You are aware that there was battle joined at the Horns of Hazzat? The Butcher King has fled
back to his palace, his new Unsullied running at his heels.
This is known. Brown Ben Plumm had sent back word of the battle from the field. The
Yunkaii have bought themselves new sellswords, and two legions from New Ghis fought beside them.
Two will soon become four, then ten. And Yunkish envoys have been sent to Myr and Volantis
to hire more blades. The Company of the Cat, the Long Lances, the Windblown. Some say that the Wise
Masters have bought the Golden Company as well.
Her brother Viserys had once feasted the captains of the Golden Company, in hopes they might
take up his cause. They ate his food and heard his pleas and laughed at him. Dany had only been a little
girl, but she remembered. I have sellswords too.
Two companies. The Yunkaii will send twenty against you if they must. And when they march,
they will not march alone. Tolos and Mantarys have agreed to an alliance.

That was ill news, if true. Daenerys had sent missions to Tolos and Mantarys, hoping to find new
friends to the west to balance the enmity of Yunkai to the south. Her envoys had not returned.
Meereen has made alliance with Lhazar.
That only made him chuckle. The Dothraki horselords call the Lhazarene the Lamb Men. When
you shear them, all they do is bleat. They are not a martial people.
Even a sheepish friend is better than none. The Wise Masters should follow their example. I
spared Yunkai before, but I will not make that mistake again. If they should dare attack me, this time I
shall raze their Yellow City to the ground.
And whilst you are razing Yunkai, my sweet, Meereen shall rise behind you. Do not close your
eyes to your peril, Daenerys. Your eunuchs are fine soldiers, but they are too few to match the hosts
that Yunkai will send against you, once Astapor has fallen.
My freedman Dany started. Bedslaves, barbers, and brickmakers win no battles.
He was wrong in that, she hoped. The freedmen had been a rabble once, but she had organized
the men of fighting age into companies and commanded Grey Worm to make them into soldiers. Let
him think what he will. Have you forgotten? I have dragons.
Do you? In Qarth, you were seldom seen without a dragon on your shoulder  yet now that
shapely shoulder is as fair and bare as your sweet breast, I observe.
My dragons have grown, my shoulders have not. They range far afield, hunting. Hazzea,
forgive me. She wondered how much Xaro knew, what whispers he had heard. Ask the Good Masters
of Astapor about my dragons if you doubt them. I saw a slavers eyes melt and go running down his
cheeks. Tell me true, old friend, why did you seek me out if not to trade?
To bring a gift, for the queen of my heart.
Say on. What trap is this, now? The gift you begged of me in Qarth. Ships. There are thirteen
galleys in the bay. Yours, if you will have them. I have brought you a fleet, to carry you home to
Westeros.
A fleet. It was more than she could hope for, so of course it made her wary. In Qarth, Xaro had
offered her thirty ships  for a dragon. And what price do you ask for these ships?
None. I no longer lust for dragons. I saw their work at Astapor on my way here, when my Silken
Cloud put in for water. The ships are yours, sweet queen. Thirteen galleys, and men to pull the oars.
Thirteen. To be sure. Xaro was one of the Thirteen. No doubt he had convinced each of his fellow
members to give up one ship. She knew the merchant prince too well to think that he would sacrifice
thirteen of his own ships. I must consider this. May I inspect these ships?
You have grown suspicious, Daenerys.

Always. I have grown wise, Xaro.
Inspect all you wish. When you are satisfied, swear to me that you shall return to Westeros
forthwith, and the ships are yours. Swear by your dragons and your seven-faced god and the ashes of
your fathers, and go.
And if I should decide to wait a year, or three?
A mournful look crossed Xaros face. That would make me very sad, my sweet delight  for
young and strong as you now seem, you shall not live so long. Not here.
He offers the honeycomb with one hand and shows the whip with the other. The Yunkaii are
not so fearsome as all that.
Not all your enemies are in the Yellow City. Beware men with cold hearts and blue lips. You had
not been gone from Qarth a fortnight when Pyat Pree set out with three of his fellow warlocks, to seek
for you in Pentos.
Dany was more amused than afraid. It is good I turned aside, then. Pentos is half a world from
Meereen.
This is so, he allowed, yet soon or late word must reach them of the dragon queen of Slavers
Bay.
Is that meant to frighten me? I lived in fear for fourteen years, my lord. I woke afraid each
morning and went to sleep afraid each night  but my fears were burned away the day I came forth
from the fire. Only one thing frightens me now.
And what is it that you fear, sweet queen?
I am only a foolish young girl. Dany rose on her toes and kissed his cheek. But not so foolish
as to tell you that. My men shall look at these ships. Then you shall have my answer.
As you say. He touched her bare breast lightly, and whispered, Let me stay and help persuade
you.
For a moment she was tempted. Perhaps the dancers had stirred her after all. I could close my
eyes and pretend that he was Daario. A dream Daario would be safer than the real one. But she pushed
the thought aside. No, my lord. I thank you, but no. Dany slipped from his arms. Some other night,
perhaps.
Some other night. His mouth was sad, but his eyes seemed more relieved than disappointed.
If I were a dragon, I could fly to Westeros, she thought when he was gone. I would have no need
of Xaro or his ships. Dany wondered how many men thirteen galleys could hold. It had taken three to
carry her and her khalasar from Qarth to Astapor, but that was before she had acquired eight thousand
Unsullied, a thousand sellswords, and a vast horde of freedmen. And the dragons, what am I to do with

them? Drogon, she whispered softly, where are you? For a moment she could almost see him
sweeping across the sky, his black wings swallowing the stars.
She turned her back upon the night, to where Barristan Selmy stood silent in the shadows. My
brother once told me a Westerosi riddle. Who listens to everything yet hears nothing?
A knight of the Kingsguard. Selmys voice was solemn. You heard Xaro make his offer?
I did, Your Grace. The old knight took pains not to look at her bare breast as he spoke to her.
Ser Jorah would not turn his eyes away. He loved me as a woman, where Ser Barristan loves me
only as his queen. Mormont had been an informer, reporting to her enemies in Westeros, yet he had
given her good counsel too. What do you think of it? Of him?
Of him, little and less. These ships, though  Your Grace, with these ships we might be home
before years end.
Dany had never known a home. In Braavos, there had been a house with a red door, but that
was all. Beware of Qartheen bearing gifts, especially merchants of the Thirteen. There is some trap
here. Perhaps these ships are rotten, or 
If they were so unseaworthy, they could not have crossed the sea from Qarth, Ser Barristan
pointed out, but Your Grace was wise to insist upon inspection. I will take Admiral Groleo to the galleys
at first light with his captains and two score of his sailors. We can crawl over every inch of those ships.
It was good counsel. Yes, make it so. Westeros. Home. But if she left, what would happen to
her city? Meereen was never your city, her brothers voice seemed to whisper. Your cities are across the
sea. Your Seven Kingdoms, where your enemies await you. You were born to serve them blood and fire.
Ser Barristan cleared his throat and said, This warlock that the merchant spoke of 
Pyat Pree. She tried to recall his face, but all she could see were his lips. The wine of the
warlocks had turned them blue. Shade-of-the-evening, it was called. If a warlocks spell could kill me, I
would be dead by now. I left their palace all in ashes. Drogon saved me when they would have drained
my life from me. Drogon burned them all.
As you say, Your Grace. Still. I will be watchful.
She kissed him on the cheek. I know you will. Come, walk me back down to the feast.
The next morning Dany woke as full of hope as she had been since first she came to Slavers Bay.
Daario would soon be at her side once more, and together they would sail for Westeros. For home. One
of her young hostages brought her morning meal, a plump shy girl named Mezzara, whose father ruled
the pyramid of Merreq, and Dany gave her a happy hug and thanked her with a kiss.
Xaro Xhoan Daxos has offered me thirteen galleys, she told Irri and Jhiqui as they were
dressing her for court.

Thirteen is a bad number, Khaleesi, murmured Jhiqui, in the Dothraki tongue. It is known.
It is known, Irri agreed. Thirty would be better, Daenerys agreed. Three hundred better
still. But thirteen may suffice to carry us to Westeros.
The two Dothraki girls exchanged a look. The poison water is accursed, Khaleesi, said Irri.
Horses cannot drink it.
I do not intend to drink it, Dany promised them.
Only four petitioners awaited her that morning. As ever, Lord Ghael was the first to present
himself, looking even more wretched than usual. Your Radiance, he moaned, as he fell to the marble
at her feet, the armies of the Yunkaii descend on Astapor. I beg you, come south with all your
strength!
I warned your king that this war of his was folly, Dany reminded him. He would not listen.
Great Cleon sought only to strike down the vile slavers of Yunkai.
Great Cleon is a slaver himself.
I know that the Mother of Dragons will not abandon us in our hour of peril. Lend us your
Unsullied to defend our walls.
And if I do, who will defend my walls? Many of my freedmen were slaves in Astapor. Perhaps
some will wish to help defend your king. That is their choice, as free men. I gave Astapor its freedom. It
is up to you to defend it.
We are all dead, then. You gave us death, not freedom. Ghael leapt to his feet and spat into
her face.
Strong Belwas seized him by the shoulder and slammed him down onto the marble so hard that
Dany heard Ghaels teeth crack. The Shavepate would have done worse, but she stopped him.
Enough, she said, dabbing at her cheek with the end of her tokar. No one has ever died from
spittle. Take him away.
They dragged him out feet first, leaving several broken teeth and a trail of blood behind. Dany
would gladly have sent the rest of the petitioners away  but she was still their queen, so she heard
them out and did her best to give them justice.
Late that afternoon Admiral Groleo and Ser Barristan returned from their inspection of the
galleys. Dany assembled her council to hear them. Grey Worm was there for the Unsullied, Skahaz mo
Kandaq for the Brazen Beasts. In the absence of her bloodriders, a wizened jaqqa rhan called Rommo,
squint-eyed and bowlegged, came to speak for her Dothraki. Her freedmen were represented by the
captains of the three companies she had formedMollono Yos Dob of the Stalwart Shields, Symon
Stripe-back of the Free Brothers, Marselen of the Mothers Men. Reznak mo Reznak hovered at the

queens elbow, and Strong Belwas stood behind her with his huge arms crossed. Dany would not lack for
counsel.
Groleo had been a most unhappy man since they had broken up his ship to build the siege
engines that won Meereen for her. Dany had tried to console him by naming him her lord admiral, but it
was a hollow honor; the Meereenese fleet had sailed for Yunkai when Danys host approached the city,
so the old Pentoshi was an admiral without ships. Yet now he was smiling through his ragged
salt-streaked beard in a way that the queen could scarce remember.
The ships are sound, then? she said, hoping. Sound enough, Your Grace. They are old ships,
aye, but most are well maintained. The hull of the Pureborn Princess is worm-eaten. Id not want to take
her beyond the sight of land. The Narraqqa could stand a new rudder and lines, and the Banded Lizard
has some cracked oars, but they will serve. The rowers are slaves, but if we offer them an honest
oarsmans wage, most will stay with us. Rowings all they know. Those who leave can be replaced from
my own crews. It is a long hard voyage to Westeros, but these ships are sound enough to get us there,
Id judge.
Reznak mo Reznak gave a piteous moan. Then it is true. Your Worship means to abandon us.
He wrung his hands. The Yunkaii will restore the Great Masters the instant you are gone, and we who
have so faithfully served your cause will be put to the sword, our sweet wives and maiden daughters
raped and enslaved.
Not mine, grumbled Skahaz Shavepate. I will kill them first, with mine own hand. He slapped
his sword hilt.
Dany felt as if he had slapped her face instead. If you fear what may follow when I leave, come
with me to Westeros.
Wherever the Mother of Dragons goes, the Mothers Men will go as well, announced
Marselen, Missandeis remaining brother.
How? asked Symon Stripeback, named for the tangle of scars that ridged his back and
shoulders, a reminder of the whippings he had suffered as a slave in Astapor. Thirteen ships  thats
not enough. A hundred ships might not be enough.
Wooden horses are no good, objected Rommo, the old jaqqa rhan. Dothraki will ride.
These ones could march overland along the shore, suggested Grey Worm. The ships could
keep pace and resupply the column.
That might serve until you reached the ruins of Bhorash, said the Shavepate. Beyond that,
your ships would need to turn south past Tolos and the Isle of Cedars and sail around Valyria, whilst the
foot continued on to Mantarys by the old dragon road.

The demon road, they call it now, said Mollono Yos Dob. The plump commander of the
Stalwart Shields looked more like a scribe than a soldier, with his inky hands and heavy paunch, but he
was as clever as they came. Many and more of us would die.
Those left behind in Meereen would envy them their easy deaths, moaned Reznak. They will
make slaves of us, or throw us in the pits. All will be as it was, or worse.
Where is your courage? Ser Barristan lashed out. Her Grace freed you from your chains. It is
for you to sharpen your swords and defend your own freedom when she leaves.
Brave words, from one who means to sail into the sunset, Symon Stripeback snarled back.
Will you look back at our dying?
Your Grace
Magnificence
Your Worship
Enough. Dany slapped the table. No one will be left to die. You are all my people. Her
dreams of home and love had blinded her. I will not abandon Meereen to the fate of Astapor. It grieves
me to say so, but Westeros must wait.
Groleo was aghast. We must accept these ships. If we refuse this gift 
Ser Barristan went to one knee before her. My queen, your realm has need of you. You are not
wanted here, but in Westeros men will flock to your banners by the thousands, great lords and noble
knights. She is come, they will shout to one another, in glad voices. Prince Rhaegars sister has come
home at last. 
If they love me so much, they will wait for me. Dany stood. Reznak, summon Xaro Xhoan
Daxos.
She received the merchant prince alone, seated on her bench of polished ebony, on the
cushions Ser Barristan had brought her. Four Qartheen sailors accompanied him, bearing a rolled
tapestry upon their shoulders. I have brought another gift for the queen of my heart, Xaro announced.
It has been in my family vaults since before the Doom that took Valyria.
The sailors unrolled the tapestry across the floor. It was old, dusty, faded  and huge. Dany had
to move to Xaros side before the patterns became plain. A map? It is beautiful. It covered half the
floor. The seas were blue, the lands were green, the mountains black and brown. Cities were shown as
stars in gold or silver thread. There is no Smoking Sea, she realized. Valyria is not yet an island.
There you see Astapor, and Yunkai, and Meereen. Xaro pointed at three silver stars beside the
blue of Slavers Bay. Westeros is  somewhere down there. His hand waved vaguely toward the far
end of the hall. You turned north when you should have continued south and west, across the Summer

Sea, but with my gift you shall soon be back where you belong. Accept my galleys with a joyful heart,
and bend your oars westward.
Would that I could. My lord, I will gladly have those ships, but I cannot give you the promise
that you ask. She took his hand. Give me the galleys, and I swear that Qarth will have the friendship of
Meereen until the stars go out. Let me trade with them, and you will have a good part of the profits.
Xaros glad smile died upon his lips. What are you saying? Are you telling me you will not go?
I cannot go.
Tears welled from his eyes, creeping down his nose, past emeralds, amethysts, and black
diamonds. I told the Thirteen that you would heed my wisdom. It grieves me to learn that I was wrong.
Take these ships and sail away, or you will surely die screaming. You cannot know how many enemies
you have made.
I know one stands before me now, weeping mummers tears. The realization made her sad.
When I went to the Hall of a Thousand Thrones to beg the Pureborn for your life, I said that you
were no more than a child, Xaro went on, but Egon Emeros the Exquisite rose and said, She is a
foolish child, mad and heedless and too dangerous to live. When your dragons were small they were a
wonder. Grown, they are death and devastation, a flaming sword above the world. He wiped away the
tears. I should have slain you in Qarth.
I was a guest beneath your roof and ate of your meat and mead, she said. In memory of all
you did for me, I will forgive those words  once  but never presume to threaten me again.
Xaro Xhoan Daxos does not threaten. He promises.
Her sadness turned to fury. And I promise you that if you are not gone before the sun comes
up, we will learn how well a liars tears can quench dragonfire. Leave me, Xaro. Quickly.
He went but left his world behind. Dany seated herself upon her bench again to gaze across the
blue silk sea, toward distant Westeros. One day, she promised herself.
The next morning Xaros galleas was gone, but the gift that he had brought her remained
behind in Slavers Bay. Long red streamers flew from the masts of the thirteen Qartheen galleys,
writhing in the wind. And when Daenerys descended to hold court, a messenger from the ships awaited
her. He spoke no word but laid at her feet a black satin pillow, upon which rested a single bloodstained
glove.
What is this? Skahaz demanded. A bloody glove 
 means war, said the queen.

JON
Careful of the rats, my lord. Dolorous Edd led Jon down the steps, a lantern in one hand. They
make an awful squeal if you step on them. My mother used to make a similar sound when I was a boy.
She must have had some rat in her, now that I think of it. Brown hair, beady little eyes, liked cheese.
Might be she had a tail too, I never looked to see.
All of Castle Black was connected underground by a maze of tunnels that the brothers called the
wormways. It was dark and gloomy underneath the earth, so the wormways were little used in summer,
but when the winter winds began to blow and the snows began to fall, the tunnels became the quickest
way to move about the castle. The stewards were making use of them already. Jon saw candles burning
in several wall niches as they made their way along the tunnel, their footsteps echoing ahead of them.
Bowen Marsh was waiting at a junction where four wormways met. With him he had Wick
Whittlestick, tall and skinny as a spear. These are the counts from three turns ago, Marsh told Jon,
offering him a thick sheaf of papers, for comparison with our present stores. Shall we start with the
granaries?
They moved through the grey gloom beneath the earth. Each storeroom had a solid oaken door
closed with an iron padlock as big as a supper plate. Is pilferage a problem? Jon asked.
Not as yet, said Bowen Marsh. Once winter comes, though, your lordship might be wise to
post guards down here.
Wick Whittlestick wore the keys on a ring about his neck. They all looked alike to Jon, yet
somehow Wick found the right one for every door. Once inside, he would take a fist-sized chunk of chalk
from his pouch and mark each cask and sack and barrel as he counted them while Marsh compared the
new count to the old.
In the granaries were oats and wheat and barley, and barrels of coarse ground flour. In the root
cellars strings of onions and garlic dangled from the rafters, and bags of carrots, parsnips, radishes, and
white and yellow turnips filled the shelves. One storeroom held wheels of cheese so large it took two
men to move them. In the next, casks of salt beef, salt pork, salt mutton, and salt cod were stacked ten
feet high. Three hundred hams and three thousand long black sausages hung from ceiling beams below
the smokehouse. In the spice locker they found peppercorns, cloves, and cinnamon, mustard seeds,
coriander, sage and clary sage and parsley, blocks of salt. Elsewhere were casks of apples and pears,
dried peas, dried figs, bags of walnuts, bags of chestnuts, bags of almonds, planks of dry smoked salmon,
clay jars packed with olives in oil and sealed with wax. One storeroom offered potted hare, haunch of
deer in honey, pickled cabbage, pickled beets, pickled onions, pickled eggs, and pickled herring.
As they moved from one vault to another, the wormways seemed to grow colder. Before long
Jon could see their breath frosting in the lantern light. Were beneath the Wall.

And soon inside it, said Marsh. The meat wont spoil in the cold. For long storage, its better
than salting.
The next door was made of rusty iron. Behind it was a flight of wooden steps. Dolorous Edd led
the way with his lantern. Up top they found a tunnel as long as Winterfells great hall though no wider
than the worm-ways. The walls were ice, bristling with iron hooks. From each hook hung a carcass:
skinned deer and elk, sides of beef, huge sows swinging from the ceiling, headless sheep and goats, even
horse and bear. Hoarfrost covered everything.
As they did their count, Jon peeled the glove off his left hand and touched the nearest haunch of
venison. He could feel his fingers sticking, and when he pulled them back he lost a bit of skin. His
fingertips were numb. What did you expect? Theres a mountain of ice above your head, more tons than
even Bowen Marsh could count. Even so, the room felt colder than it should.
It is worse than I feared, my lord, Marsh announced when he was done. He sounded gloomier
than Dolorous Edd.
Jon had just been thinking that all the meat in the world surrounded them. You know nothing,
Jon Snow. How so? This seems a deal of food to me.
It was a long summer. The harvests were bountiful, the lords generous. We had enough laid by
to see us through three years of winter. Four, with a bit of scrimping. Now, though, if we must go on
feeding all these kings men and queens men and wildlings  Moles Town alone has a thousand useless
mouths, and still they come. Three more turned up yesterday at the gates, a dozen the day before. It
cannot go on. Settling them on the Gift, thats well and good, but it is too late to plant crops. Well be
down to turnips and pease porridge before the year is out. After that well be drinking the blood of our
own horses.
Yum, declared Dolorous Edd. Nothing beats a hot cup of horse blood on a cold night. I like
mine with a pinch of cinnamon sprinkled on top.
The Lord Steward paid him no mind. There will be sickness too, he went on, bleeding gums
and loose teeth. Maester Aemon used to say that lime juice and fresh meat would remedy that, but our
limes were gone a year ago and we do not have enough fodder to keep herds afoot for fresh meat. We
should butcher all but a few breeding pairs. Its past time. In winters past, food could be brought up the
kingsroad from the south, but with the war  it is still autumn, I know, but I would advise we go on
winter rations nonetheless, if it please my lord.
The men will love that. If we must. Well cut each mans portion by a quarter. If my brothers
are complaining of me now, what will they say when theyre eating snow and acorn paste?
That will help, my lord. The Lord Stewards tone made it plain that he did not think that it
would help enough.

Dolorous Edd said, Now I understand why King Stannis let the wild-lings through the Wall. He
means for us to eat them.
Jon had to smile. It will not come to that.
Oh, good, said Edd. They look a stringy lot, and my teeth are not as sharp as when I was
younger.
If we had sufficient coin, we could buy food from the south and bring it in by ship, the Lord
Steward said.
We could, thought Jon, if we had the gold, and someone willing to sell us food. Both of those
were lacking. Our best hope may be the Eyrie. The Vale of Arryn was famously fertile and had gone
untouched during the fighting. Jon wondered how Lady Catelyns sister would feel about feeding Ned
Starks bastard. As a boy, he often felt as if the lady grudged him every bite.
We can always hunt if need be, Wick Whittlestick put in. Theres still game in the woods.
And wildlings, and darker things, said Marsh. I would not send out hunters, my lord. I would
not.
No. You would close our gates forever and seal them up with stone and ice. Half of Castle Black
agreed with the Lord Stewards views, he knew. The other half heaped scorn on them. Seal our gates
and plant your fat black arses on the Wall, aye, and the free folkll come swarming oer the Bridge o
Skulls or through some gate you thought youd sealed five hundred years ago, the old forester Dywen
had declared loudly over supper, two nights past. We dont have the men to watch a hundred leagues
o Wall. Tormund Giantsbutt and the bloody Weeper knows it too. Ever see a duck frozen in a pond, with
his feet in the ice? It works the same for crows. Most rangers echoed Dywen, whilst the stewards and
builders inclined toward Bowen Marsh.
But that was a quandary for another day. Here and now, the problem was food. We cannot
leave King Stannis and his men to starve, even if we wished to, Jon said. If need be, he could simply
take all this at sword-point. We do not have the men to stop them. The wildlings must be fed as well.
How, my lord? asked Bowen Marsh.
Would that I knew. We will find a way.
By the time they returned to the surface, the shadows of the afternoon were growing long.
Clouds streaked the sky like tattered banners, grey and white and torn. The yard outside the armory was
empty, but inside Jon found the kings squire awaiting him. Devan was a skinny lad of some twelve
years, brown of hair and eye. They found him frozen by the forge, hardly daring to move as Ghost
sniffed him up and down. He wont hurt you, Jon said, but the boy flinched at the sound of his voice,
and that sudden motion made the direwolf bare his teeth. No! Jon said. Ghost, leave him be. Away.
The wolf slunk back to his ox bone, silence on four feet.

Devan looked as pale as Ghost, his face damp with perspiration. M-my lord. His Grace
c-commands your presence. The boy was clad in Baratheon gold and black, with the flaming heart of a
queens man sewn above his own.
You mean requests, said Dolorous Edd. His Grace requests the presence of the lord
commander. Thats how Id say it.
Leave it be, Edd. Jon was in no mood for such squabbles. Sir Richard and Ser Justin have
returned, said Devan. Will you come, my lord?
The wrong-way rangers. Massey and Horpe had ridden south, not north. Whatever they had
learned did not concern the Nights Watch, but Jon was curious all the same. If it would please His
Grace. He followed the young squire back across the yard. Ghost padded after them until Jon said, No.
Stay! Instead the direwolf ran off.
In the Kings Tower, Jon was stripped of his weapons and admitted to the royal presence. The
solar was hot and crowded. Stannis and his captains were gathered over the map of the north. The
wrong-way rangers were amongst them. Sigorn was there as well, the young Magnar of Thenn, clad in a
leather hauberk sewn with bronze scales. Rattleshirt sat scratching at the manacle on his wrist with a
cracked yellow fingernail. Brown stubble covered his sunken cheeks and receding chin, and strands of
dirty hair hung across his eyes. Here he comes, he said when he saw Jon, the brave boy who slew
Mance Rayder when he was caged and bound. The big square-cut gem that adorned his iron cuff
glimmered redly. Do you like my ruby, Snow? A token o love from Lady Red.
Jon ignored him and took a knee. Your Grace, announced the squire Devan, Ive brought Lord
Snow.
I can see that. Lord Commander. You know my knights and captains, I believe.
I have that honor. He had made it a point to learn all he could of the men around the king.
Queens men, all. It struck Jon as odd that there were no kings men about the king, but that seemed to
be the way of it. The kings men had incurred Stanniss ire on Dragonstone if the talk Jon heard was true.
There is wine. Or water boiled with lemons.
Thank you, but no.
As you wish. I have a gift for you, Lord Snow. The king waved a hand at Rattleshirt. Him.
Lady Melisandre smiled. You did say you wanted men, Lord Snow. I believe our Lord of Bones
still qualifies.
Jon was aghast. Your Grace, this man cannot be trusted. If I keep him here, someone will slit his
throat for him. If I send him ranging, hell just go back over to the wildlings.

Not me. Im done with those bloody fools. Rattleshirt tapped the ruby on his wrist. Ask your
red witch, bastard.
Melisandre spoke softly in a strange tongue. The ruby at her throat throbbed slowly, and Jon
saw that the smaller stone on Rattleshirts wrist was brightening and darkening as well. So long as he
wears the gem he is bound to me, blood and soul, the red priestess said. This man will serve you
faithfully. The flames do not lie, Lord Snow.
Perhaps not, Jon thought, but you do.
Ill range for you, bastard, Rattleshirt declared. Ill give you sage counsel or sing you pretty
songs, as you prefer. Ill even fight for you. Just dont ask me to wear your cloak.
You are not worthy of one, Jon thought, but he held his tongue. No good would come of
squabbling before the king.
King Stannis said, Lord Snow, tell me of Mors Umber.
The Nights Watch takes no part, Jon thought, but another voice within him said, Words are not
swords. The elder of the Greatjons uncles. Crow-food, they call him. A crow once took him for dead
and pecked out his eye. He caught the bird in his fist and bit its head off. When Mors was young he was
a fearsome fighter. His sons died on the Trident, his wife in childbed. His only daughter was carried off
by wildlings thirty years ago.
Thats why he wants the head, said Harwood Fell. Can this man Mors be trusted? asked
Stannis.
Has Mors Umber bent the knee? Your Grace should have him swear an oath before his heart
tree.
Godry the Giantslayer guffawed. I had forgotten that you northmen worship trees.
What sort of god lets himself be pissed upon by dogs? asked Farrings crony Clayton Suggs.
Jon chose to ignore them. Your Grace, might I know if the Umbers have declared for you?
Half of them, and only if I meet this Crowfoods price, said Stannis, in an irritated tone. He
wants Mance Rayders skull for a drinking cup, and he wants a pardon for his brother, who has ridden
south to join Bolton. Whoresbane, hes called.
Ser Godry was amused by that as well. What names these northmen have! Did this one bite the
head off some whore?
Jon regarded him coolly. You might say so. A whore who tried to rob him, fifty years ago in
Oldtown. Odd as it might seem, old Hoarfrost Umber had once believed his youngest son had the
makings of a maester. Mors loved to boast about the crow who took his eye, but Hothers tale was only

told in whispers  most like because the whore hed disemboweled had been a man. Have other lords
declared for Bolton too?
The red priestess slid closer to the king. I saw a town with wooden walls and wooden streets,
filled with men. Banners flew above its walls: a moose, a battle-axe, three pine trees, longaxes crossed
beneath a crown, a horses head with fiery eyes.
Hornwood, Cerwyn, Tallhart, Ryswell, and Dustin, supplied Ser Clayton Suggs. Traitors, all.
Lapdogs of the Lannisters.
The Ryswells and Dustins are tied to House Bolton by marriage, Jon informed him. These
others have lost their lords in the fighting. I do not know who leads them now. Crowfood is no lapdog,
though. Your Grace would do well to accept his terms.
Stannis ground his teeth. He informs me that Umber will not fight Umber, for any cause.
Jon was not surprised. If it comes to swords, see where Hothers banner flies and put Mors on
the other end of the line.
The Giantslayer disagreed. You would make His Grace look weak. I say, show our strength. Burn
Last Hearth to the ground and ride to war with Crowfoods head mounted on a spear, as a lesson to the
next lord who presumes to offer half his homage.
A fine plan if what you want is every hand in the north raised against you. Half is more than
none. The Umbers have no love for the Boltons. If Whoresbane has joined the Bastard, it can only be
because the Lannisters hold the Greatjon captive.
That is his pretext, not his reason, declared Ser Godry. If the nephew dies in chains, these
uncles can claim his lands and lordship for themselves.
The Greatjon has sons and daughters both. In the north the children of a mans body still come
before his uncles, ser.
Unless they die. Dead children come last everywhere.
Suggest that in the hearing of Mors Umber, Ser Godry, and you will learn more of death than
you might wish.
I have slain a giant, boy. Why should I fear some flea-ridden north-man who paints one on his
shield?
The giant was running away. Mors wont be.
The big knight flushed. You have a bold tongue in the kings solar, boy. In the yard you sang a
different song.

Oh, leave off, Godry, said Ser Justin Massey, a loose-limbed, fleshy knight with a ready smile
and a mop of flaxen hair. Massey had been one of the wrong-way rangers. We all know what a big giant
sword you have, Im sure. No need for you to wave it in our faces yet again.
The only thing waving here is your tongue, Massey.
Be quiet, Stannis snapped. Lord Snow, attend me. I have lingered here in the hopes that the
wildlings would be fool enough to mount another attack upon the Wall. As they will not oblige me, it is
time I dealt with my other foes.
I see. Jons tone was wary. What does he want of me? I have no love for Lord Bolton or his
son, but the Nights Watch cannot take up arms against them. Our vows prohibit
I know all about your vows. Spare me your rectitude, Lord Snow, I have strength enough
without you. I have a mind to march against the Dreadfort. When he saw the shock on Jons face, he
smiled. Does that surprise you? Good. What surprises one Snow may yet surprise another. The Bastard
of Bolton has gone south, taking Hother Umber with him. On that Mors Umber and Arnolf Karstark are
agreed. That can only mean a strike at Moat Cailin, to open the way for his lord father to return to the
north. The bastard must think I am too busy with the wildlings to trouble him. Well and good. The boy
has shown me his throat. I mean to rip it out. Roose Bolton may regain the north, but when he does he
will find that his castle, herds, and harvest all belong to me. If I take the Dreadfort unawares
You wont, Jon blurted.
It was as if he whacked a wasps nest with a stick. One of the queens men laughed, one spat,
one muttered a curse, and the rest all tried to talk at once. The boy has milkwater in his veins, said Ser
Godry the Giant-slayer. And Lord Sweet huffed, The craven sees an outlaw behind every blade of
grass.
Stannis raised a hand for silence. Explain your meaning.
Where to begin? Jon moved to the map. Candles had been placed at its corners to keep the hide
from rolling up. A finger of warm wax was puddling out across the Bay of Seals, slow as a glacier. To
reach the Dreadfort, Your Grace must travel down the kingsroad past the Last River, turn south by east
and cross the Lonely Hills. He pointed. Those are Umber lands, where they know every tree and every
rock. The kingsroad runs along their western marches for a hundred leagues. Mors will cut your host to
pieces unless you meet his terms and win him to your cause.
Very well. Let us say I do that.
That will bring you to the Dreadfort, said Jon, but unless your host can outmarch a raven or a
line of beacon fires, the castle will know of your approach. It will be an easy thing for Ramsay Bolton to
cut off your retreat and leave you far from the Wall, without food or refuge, surrounded by your foes.
Only if he abandons his siege of Moat Cailin.

Moat Cailin will fall before you ever reach the Dreadfort. Once Lord Roose has joined his
strength to Ramsays, they will have you outnumbered five to one.
My brother won battles at worse odds.
You assume Moat Cailin will fall quickly, Snow, objected Justin Massey, but the ironmen are
doughty fighters, and Ive heard it said that the Moat has never been taken.
From the south. A small garrison in Moat Cailin can play havoc with any army coming up the
causeway, but the ruins are vulnerable from the north and east. Jon turned back to Stannis. Sire, this
is a bold stroke, but the risk The Nights Watch takes no part. Baratheon or Bolton should be the
same to me. If Roose Bolton should catch you beneath his walls with his main strength, it will be the
end for all of you.
Risk is part of war, declared Ser Richard Horpe, a lean knight with a ravaged face whose
quilted doublet showed three deaths-head moths on a field of ash and bone. Every battle is a gamble,
Snow. The man who does nothing also takes a risk.
There are risks and risks, Ser Richard. This one  it is too much, too soon, too far away. I know
the Dreadfort. It is a strong castle, all of stone, with thick walls and massive towers. With winter coming
you will find it well provisioned. Centuries ago, House Bolton rose up against the King in the North, and
Harlon Stark laid siege to the Dreadfort. It took him two years to starve them out. To have any hope of
taking the castle, Your Grace would need siege engines, towers, battering rams 
Siege towers can be raised if need be, Stannis said. Trees can be felled for rams if rams are
required. Arnolf Karstark writes that fewer than fifty men remain at the Dreadfort, half of them
servants. A strong castle weakly held is weak.
Fifty men inside a castle are worth five hundred outside.
That depends upon the men, said Richard Horpe. These will be greybeards and green boys,
the men this bastard did not deem fit for battle. Our own men were blooded and tested on the
Blackwater, and they are led by knights.
You saw how we went through the wildlings. Ser Justin pushed back a lock of flaxen hair. The
Karstarks have sworn to join us at the Dreadfort, and we will have our wildlings as well. Three hundred
men of fighting age. Lord Harwood made a count as they were passing through the gate. Their women
fight as well.
Stannis gave him a sour look. Not for me, ser. I want no widows wailing in my wake. The
women will remain here, with the old, the wounded, and the children. They will serve as hostages for
the loyalty of their husbands and fathers. The wildling men will form my van. The Magnar will command
them, with their own chiefs as serjeants. First, though, we must needs arm them.

He means to plunder our armory, Jon realized. Food and clothing, land and castles, now
weapons. He draws me in deeper every day. Words might not be swords, but swords were swords. I
could find three hundred spears, he said, reluctantly. Helms as well, if youll take them old and dinted
and red with rust.
Armor? asked the Magnar. Plate? Mail?
When Donal Noye died we lost our armorer. The rest Jon left unspoken. Give the wildlings
mail and theyll be twice as great a danger to the realm.
Boiled leather will suffice, said Ser Godry. Once weve tasted battle, the survivors can loot the
dead.
The few who live that long. If Stannis placed the free folk in the van, most would perish quickly.
Drinking from Mance Rayders skull may give Mors Umber pleasure, but seeing wildlings cross his lands
will not. The free folk have been raiding the Umbers since the Dawn of Days, crossing the Bay of Seals
for gold and sheep and women. One of those carried off was Crowfoods daughter. Your Grace, leave
the wildlings here. Taking them will only serve to turn my lord fathers bannermen against you.
Your fathers bannermen seem to have no liking for my cause in any case. I must assume they
see me as  what was it that you called me, Lord Snow? Another doomed pretender? Stannis stared at
the map. For a long moment the only sound was the king grinding his teeth. Leave me. All of you. Lord
Snow, remain.
The brusque dismissal did not sit well with Justin Massey, but he had no choice but to smile and
withdraw. Horpe followed him out, after giving Jon a measured look. Clayton Suggs drained his cup dry
and muttered something to Harwood Fell that made the younger man laugh. Boy was part of it. Suggs
was an upjumped hedge knight, as crude as he was strong. The last man to take his leave was
Rattleshirt. At the door, he gave Jon a mocking bow, grinning through a mouthful of brown and broken
teeth.
All of you did not seem to include Lady Melisandre. The kings red shadow. Stannis called to
Devan for more lemon water. When his cup was filled the king drank, and said, Horpe and Massey
aspire to your fathers seat. Massey wants the wildling princess too. He once served my brother Robert
as squire and acquired his appetite for female flesh. Horpe will take Val to wife if I command it, but it is
battle he lusts for. As a squire he dreamed of a white cloak, but Cersei Lannister spoke against him and
Robert passed him over. Perhaps rightly. Ser Richard is too fond of killing. Which would you have as Lord
of Winterfell, Snow? The smiler or the slayer?
Jon said, Winterfell belongs to my sister Sansa.
I have heard all I need to hear of Lady Lannister and her claim. The king set the cup aside. You
could bring the north to me. Your fathers bannermen would rally to the son of Eddard Stark. Even Lord
Too-Fat-to-Sit-a-Horse. White Harbor would give me a ready source of supply and a secure base to

which I could retreat at need. It is not too late to amend your folly, Snow. Take a knee and swear that
bastard sword to me, and rise as Jon Stark, Lord of Winterfell and Warden of the North.
How many times will he make me say it? My sword is sworn to the Nights Watch.
Stannis looked disgusted. Your father was a stubborn man as well. Honor, he called it. Well,
honor has its costs, as Lord Eddard learned to his sorrow. If it gives you any solace, Horpe and Massey
are doomed to disappointment. I am more inclined to bestow Winterfell upon Arnolf Karstark. A good
northman.
A northman. Better a Karstark than a Bolton or a Greyjoy, Jon told himself, but the thought
gave him little solace. The Karstarks abandoned my brother amongst his enemies.
After your brother took off Lord Rickards head. Arnolf was a thousand leagues away. He has
Stark blood in him. The blood of Winterfell.
No more than half the other Houses of the north.
Those other Houses have not declared for me.
Arnolf Karstark is an old man with a crooked back, and even in his youth he was never the
fighter Lord Rickard was. The rigors of the campaign may well kill him.
He has heirs, Stannis snapped. Two sons, six grandsons, some daughters. If Robert had
fathered trueborn sons, many who are dead might still be living.
Your Grace would do better with Mors Crowfood.
The Dreadfort will be the proof of that.
Then you mean to go ahead with this attack?
Despite the counsel of the great Lord Snow? Aye. Horpe and Massey may be ambitious, but
they are not wrong. I dare not sit idle whilst Roose Boltons star waxes and mine wanes. I must strike
and show the north that I am still a man to fear.
The merman of Manderly was not amongst those banners Lady Melisandre saw in her fires,
Jon said. If you had White Harbor and Lord Wymans knights 
If is a word for fools. We have had no word from Davos. It may be he never reached White
Harbor. Arnolf Karstark writes that the storms have been fierce upon the narrow sea. Be that as it may. I
have no time to grieve, nor wait upon the whims of Lord Too-Fat. I must consider White Harbor lost to
me. Without a son of Winterfell to stand beside me, I can only hope to win the north by battle. That
requires stealing a leaf from my brothers book. Not that Robert ever read one. I must deal my foes a
mortal blow before they know that I am on them.

Jon realized that his words were wasted. Stannis would take the Dreadfort or die in the attempt.
The Nights Watch takes no part, a voice said, but another replied, Stannis fights for the realm, the
ironmen for thralls and plunder. Your Grace, I know where you might find more men. Give me the
wildlings, and I will gladly tell you where and how.
I gave you Rattleshirt. Be content with him.
I want them all.
Some of your own Sworn Brothers would have me believe that you are half a wildling yourself.
Is it true?
To you they are only arrow fodder. I can make better use of them upon the Wall. Give them to
me to do with as I will, and Ill show you where to find your victory  and men as well.
Stannis rubbed the back of his neck. You haggle like a crone with a codfish, Lord Snow. Did Ned
Stark father you on some fishwife? How many men?
Two thousand. Perhaps three.
Three thousand? What manner of men are these?
Proud. Poor. Prickly where their honor is concerned but fierce fighters.
This had best not be some bastards trick. Will I trade three hundred fighters for three
thousand? Aye, I will. I am not an utter fool. If I leave the girl with you as well, do I have your word that
you will keep our princess closely?
She is not a princess. As you wish, Your Grace.
Do I need to make you swear an oath before a tree?
No. Was that a jape? With Stannis, it was hard to tell. Done, then. Now, where are these
men?
Youll find them here. Jon spread his burned hand across the map, west of the kingsroad and
south of the Gift.
Those mountains? Stannis grew suspicious. I see no castles marked there. No roads, no
towns, no villages.
The map is not the land, my father often said. Men have lived in the high valleys and mountain
meadows for thousands of years, ruled by their clan chiefs. Petty lords, you would call them, though
they do not use such titles amongst themselves. Clan champions fight with huge two-handed
greatswords, while the common men sling stones and batter one another with staffs of mountain ash. A
quarrelsome folk, it must be said. When they are not fighting one another, they tend their herds, fish
the Bay of Ice, and breed the hardiest mounts youll ever ride.

And they will fight for me, you believe?
If you ask them.
Why should I beg for what is owed me?
Ask, I said, not beg. Jon pulled back his hand. It is no good sending messages. Your Grace will
need to go to them yourself. Eat their bread and salt, drink their ale, listen to their pipers, praise the
beauty of their daughters and the courage of their sons, and youll have their swords. The clans have not
seen a king since Torrhen Stark bent his knee. Your coming does them honor. Command them to fight
for you, and they will look at one another and say, Who is this man? He is no king of mine. 
How many clans are you speaking of?
Two score, small and large. Flint, Wull, Norrey, Liddle  win Old Flint and Big Bucket, the rest
will follow.
Big Bucket?
The Wull. He has the biggest belly in the mountains, and the most men. The Wulls fish the Bay
of Ice and warn their little ones that ironmen will carry them off if they dont behave. To reach them
Your Grace must pass through the Norreys lands, however. They live the nearest to the Gift and have
always been good friends to the Watch. I could give you guides.
Could? Stannis missed little. Or will?
Will. Youll need them. And some sure-footed garrons too. The paths up there are little more
than goat tracks.
Goat tracks? The kings eyes narrowed. I speak of moving swiftly, and you waste my time
with goat tracks?
When the Young Dragon conquered Dorne, he used a goat track to bypass the Dornish
watchtowers on the Boneway.
I know that tale as well, but Daeron made too much of it in that vain-glorious book of his. Ships
won that war, not goat tracks. Oakenfist broke the Planky Town and swept halfway up the Greenblood
whilst the main Dornish strength was engaged in the Princes Pass. Stannis drummed his fingers on the
map. These mountain lords will not hinder my passage?
Only with feasts. Each will try to outdo the others with his hospitality. My lord father said he
never ate half so well as when visiting the clans.
For three thousand men, I suppose I can endure some pipes and porridge, the king said,
though his tone begrudged even that.

Jon turned to Melisandre. My lady, fair warning. The old gods are strong in those mountains.
The clansmen will not suffer insults to their heart trees.
That seemed to amuse her. Have no fear, Jon Snow, I will not trouble your mountain savages
and their dark gods. My place is here with you and your brave brothers.
That was the last thing Jon Snow would have wanted, but before he could object, the king said,
Where would you have me lead these stalwarts if not against the Dreadfort?
Jon glanced down at the map. Deepwood Motte. He tapped it with a finger. If Bolton means
to fight the ironmen, so must you. Deepwood is a motte-and-bailey castle in the midst of thick forest,
easy to creep up on unawares. A wooden castle, defended by an earthen dike and a palisade of logs. The
going will be slower through the mountains, admittedly, but up there your host can move unseen, to
emerge almost at the gates of Deepwood.
Stannis rubbed his jaw. When Balon Greyjoy rose the first time, I beat the ironmen at sea,
where they are fiercest. On land, taken unawares  aye. I have won a victory over the wildlings and their
King-Beyond-the-Wall. If I can smash the ironmen as well, the north will know it has a king again.
And I will have a thousand wildlings, thought Jon, and no way to feed even half that number.
TYRION
The Shy Maid moved through the fog like a blind man groping his way down an unfamiliar hall.
Septa Lemore was praying. The mists muffled the sound of her voice, making it seem small and
hushed. Griff paced the deck, mail clinking softly beneath his wolfskin cloak. From time to time he
touched his sword, as if to make certain that it still hung at his side. Rolly Duckfield was pushing at the
starboard pole, Yandry at the larboard. Ysilla had the tiller.
I do not like this place, Haldon Halfmaester muttered. Frightened of a little fog? mocked
Tyrion, though in truth there was quite a lot of fog. At the prow of the Shy Maid, Young Griff stood with
the third pole, to push them away from hazards as they loomed up through the mists. The lanterns had
been lit fore and aft, but the fog was so thick that all the dwarf could see from amidships was a light
floating out ahead of him and another following behind. His own task was to tend the brazier and make
certain that the fire did not go out.
This is no common fog, Hugor Hill, Ysilla insisted. It stinks of sorcery, as you would know if
you had a nose to smell it. Many a voyager has been lost here, poleboats and pirates and great river
galleys too. They wander forlorn through the mists, searching for a sun they cannot find until madness
or hunger claim their lives. There are restless spirits in the air here and tormented souls below the
water.

Theres one now, said Tyrion. Off to starboard a hand large enough to crush the boat was
reaching up from the murky depths. Only the tops of two fingers broke the rivers surface, but as the Shy
Maid eased on past he could see the rest of the hand rippling below the water and a pale face looking
up. Though his tone was light, he was uneasy. This was a bad place, rank with despair and death. Ysilla is
not wrong. This fog is not natural. Something foul grew in the waters here, and festered in the air. Small
wonder the stone men go mad.
You should not make mock, warned Ysilla. The whispering dead hate the warm and quick and
ever seek for more damned souls to join them.
I doubt they have a shroud my size. The dwarf stirred the coals with a poker.
Hatred does not stir the stone men half so much as hunger. Haldon Halfmaester had wrapped
a yellow scarf around his mouth and nose, muffling his voice. Nothing any sane man would want to eat
grows in these fogs. Thrice each year the triarchs of Volantis send a galley upriver with provisions, but
the mercy ships are oft late and sometimes bring more mouths than food.
Young Griff said, There must be fish in the river.
I would not eat any fish taken from these waters, said Ysilla. I would not.
Wed do well not to breathe the fog either, said Haldon. Garins Curse is all about us.
The only way not to breathe the fog is not to breathe. Garins Curse is only greyscale, said
Tyrion. The curse was oft seen in children, especially in damp, cold climes. The afflicted flesh stiffened,
calcified, and cracked, though the dwarf had read that greyscales progress could be stayed by limes,
mustard poultices, and scalding-hot baths (the maesters said) or by prayer, sacrifice, and fasting (the
septons insisted). Then the disease passed, leaving its young victims disfigured but alive. Maesters and
sep-tons alike agreed that children marked by greyscale could never be touched by the rarer mortal
form of the affliction, nor by its terrible swift cousin, the grey plague. Damp is said to be the culprit, he
said. Foul humors in the air. Not curses.
The conquerors did not believe either, Hugor Hill, said Ysilla. The men of Volantis and Valyria
hung Garin in a golden cage and made mock as he called upon his Mother to destroy them. But in the
night the waters rose and drowned them, and from that day to this they have not rested. They are down
there still beneath the water, they who were once the lords of fire. Their cold breath rises from the
murk to make these fogs, and their flesh has turned as stony as their hearts.
The stump of Tyrions nose was itching fiercely. He gave it a scratch. The old woman may be
right. This place is no good. I feel as if I am back in the privy again, watching my father die. He would go
mad as well if he had to spend his days in this grey soup whilst his flesh and bones turned to stone.
Young Griff did not seem to share his misgivings. Let them try and trouble us, well show them
what were made of.

We are made of blood and bone, in the image of the Father and the Mother, said Septa
Lemore. Make no vainglorious boasts, I beg you. Pride is a grievous sin. The stone men were proud as
well, and the Shrouded Lord was proudest of them all.
The heat from the glowing coals brought a flush to Tyrions face. Is there a Shrouded Lord? Or
is he just some tale?
The Shrouded Lord has ruled these mists since Garins day, said Yandry. Some say that he
himself is Garin, risen from his watery grave.
The dead do not rise, insisted Haldon Halfmaester, and no man lives a thousand years. Yes,
there is a Shrouded Lord. There have been a score of them. When one dies another takes his place. This
one is a corsair from the Basilisk Islands who believed the Rhoyne would offer richer pickings than the
Summer Sea.
Aye, Ive heard that too, said Duck, but theres another tale I like better. The one that says
hes not like tother stone men, that he started as a statue till a grey woman came out of the fog and
kissed him with lips as cold as ice.
Enough, said Griff. Be quiet, all of you.
Septa Lemore sucked in her breath. What was that?
Where? Tyrion saw nothing but the fog. Something moved. I saw the water rippling.
A turtle, the prince announced cheerfully. A big snapper, thats all it was. He thrust his pole
out ahead of them and pushed them away from a towering green obelisk.
The fog clung to them, damp and chilly. A sunken temple loomed up out of the greyness as
Yandry and Duck leaned upon their poles and paced slowly from prow to stern, pushing. They passed a
marble stair that spiraled up from the mud and ended jaggedly in air. Beyond, half-seen, were other
shapes: shattered spires, headless statues, trees with roots bigger than their boat.
This was the most beautiful city on the river, and the richest, said Yandry. Chroyane, the
festival city.
Too rich, thought Tyrion, too beautiful. It is never wise to tempt the dragons. The drowned city
was all around them. A half-seen shape flapped by overhead, pale leathery wings beating at the fog. The
dwarf craned his head around to get a better look, but the thing was gone as suddenly as it had
appeared.
Not long after, another light floated into view. Boat, a voice called across the water, faintly.
Who are you?
Shy Maid, Yandry shouted back. Kingfisher. Up or down?
Down. Hides and honey, ale and tallow.

Up. Knives and needles, lace and linen, spice wine.
What word from old Volantis? Yandry called. War, the word came back. Where? Griff
shouted. When?
When the year turns, came the answer, Nyessos and Malaquo go hand in hand, and the
elephants show stripes. The voice faded as the other boat moved away from them. They watched its
light dwindle and disappear.
Is it wise to shout through the fog at boats we cannot see? asked Tyrion. What if they were
pirates? They had been fortunate where the pirates were concerned, slipping down Dagger Lake by
night, unseen and unmolested. Once Duck had caught a glimpse of a hull that he insisted belonged to
Urho the Unwashed. The Shy Maid had been upwind, however, and Urhoif Urho it had beenhad
shown no interest in them.
The pirates will not sail into the Sorrows, said Yandry. Elephants with stripes? Griff
muttered. What is that about? Nyessos and Malaquo? Illyrio has paid Triarch Nyessos enough to own
him eight times over.
In gold or cheese? quipped Tyrion.
Griff rounded on him. Unless you can cut this fog with your next witticism, keep it to yourself.
Yes, Father, the dwarf almost said. Ill be quiet. Thank you. He did not know these Volantenes,
yet it seemed to him that elephants and tigers might have good reason to make common cause when
faced with dragons. Might be the cheesemonger has misjudged the situation. You can buy a man with
gold, but only blood and steel will keep him true.
The little man stirred the coals again and blew on them to make them burn brighter. I hate this. I
hate this fog, I hate this place, and I am less than fond of Griff. Tyrion still had the poison mushrooms he
had plucked from the grounds of Illyrios manse, and there were days when he was sore tempted to slip
them into Griffs supper. The trouble was, Griff scarce seemed to eat.
Duck and Yandry pushed against the poles. Ysilla turned the tiller. Young Griff pushed the Shy
Maid away from a broken tower whose windows stared down like blind black eyes. Overhead her sail
hung limp and heavy. The water deepened under her hull, until their poles could not touch bottom, but
still the current pushed them downstream, until 
All Tyrion could see was something massive rising from the river, humped and ominous. He took
it for a hill looming above a wooded island, or some colossal rock overgrown with moss and ferns and
hidden by the fog. As the Shy Maid drew nearer, though, the shape of it came clearer. A wooden keep
could be seen beside the water, rotted and overgrown. Slender spires took form above it, some of them
snapped off like broken spears. Roofless towers appeared and disappeared, thrusting blindly upward.
Halls and galleries drifted past: graceful buttresses, delicate arches, fluted columns, terraces and
bowers.

All ruined, all desolate, all fallen.
The grey moss grew thickly here, covering the fallen stones in great mounds and bearding all the
towers. Black vines crept in and out of windows, through doors and over archways, up the sides of high
stone walls. The fog concealed three-quarters of the palace, but what they glimpsed was more than
enough for Tyrion to know that this island fastness had been ten times the size of the Red Keep once
and a hundred times more beautiful. He knew where he was. The Palace of Love, he said softly.
That was the Rhoynar name, said Haldon Halfmaester, but for a thousand years this has been
the Palace of Sorrow.
The ruin was sad enough, but knowing what it had been made it even sadder. There was
laughter here once, Tyrion thought. There were gardens bright with flowers and fountains sparkling
golden in the sun. These steps once rang to the sound of lovers footsteps, and beneath that broken
dome marriages beyond count were sealed with a kiss. His thoughts turned to Tysha, who had so briefly
been his lady wife. It was Jaime, he thought, despairing. He was my own blood, my big strong brother.
When I was small he brought me toys, barrel hoops and blocks and a carved wooden lion. He gave me
my first pony and taught me how to ride him. When he said that he had bought you for me, I never
doubted him. Why would I? He was Jaime, and you were just some girl whod played a part. I had feared
it from the start, from the moment you first smiled at me and let me touch your hand. My own father
could not love me. Why would you if not for gold?
Through the long grey fingers of the fog, he heard again the deep shuddering thrum of a
bowstring snapping taut, the grunt Lord Tywin made as the quarrel took him beneath the belly, the slap
of cheeks on stone as he sat back down to die. Wherever whores go, he said. And where is that?
Tyrion wanted to ask him. Where did Tysha go, Father? How much more of this fog must we endure?
Another hour should see us clear of the Sorrows, said Haldon Half-maester. From there on,
this should be a pleasure cruise. Theres a village around every bend along the lower Rhoyne. Orchards
and vineyards and fields of grain ripening in the sun, fisherfolk on the water, hot baths and sweet wines.
Selhorys, Valysar, and Volon Therys are walled towns so large they would be cities in the Seven
Kingdoms. I believe Ill
Light ahead, warned Young Griff.
Tyrion saw it too. Kingfisher, or another poleboat, he told himself, but somehow he knew that
was not right. His nose itched. He scratched at it savagely. The light grew brighter as the Shy Maid
approached it. A soft star in the distance, it glimmered faintly through the fog, beckoning them on.
Shortly it became two lights, then three: a ragged row of beacons rising from the water.
The Bridge of Dream, Griff named it. There will be stone men on the span. Some may start to
wail at our approach, but they are not like to molest us. Most stone men are feeble creatures, clumsy,
lumbering, witless. Near the end they all go mad, but that is when they are most dangerous. If need be,
fend them off with the torches. On no account let them touch you.

They may not even see us, said Haldon Halfmaester. The fog will hide us from them until we
are almost at the bridge, and then we will be past before they know that we are here.
Stone eyes are blind eyes, thought Tyrion. The mortal form of greyscale began in the extremities,
he knew: a tingling in a fingertip, a toenail turning black, a loss of feeling. As the numbness crept into the
hand, or stole past the foot and up the leg, the flesh stiffened and grew cold and the victims skin took
on a greyish hue, resembling stone. He had heard it said that there were three good cures for greyscale:
axe and sword and cleaver. Hacking off afflicted parts did sometimes stop the spread of the disease,
Tyrion knew, but not always. Many a man had sacrificed one arm or foot, only to find the other going
grey. Once that happened, hope was gone. Blindness was common when the stone reached the face. In
the final stages the curse turned inward, to muscles, bones, and inner organs.
Ahead of them, the bridge grew larger. The Bridge of Dream, Griff called it, but this dream was
smashed and broken. Pale stone arches marched off into the fog, reaching from the Palace of Sorrow to
the rivers western bank. Half of them had collapsed, pulled down by the weight of the grey moss that
draped them and the thick black vines that snaked upward from the water. The broad wooden span of
the bridge had rotted through, but some of the lamps that lined the way were still aglow. As the Shy
Maid drew closer, Tyrion could see the shapes of stone men moving in the light, shuffling aimlessly
around the lamps like slow grey moths. Some were naked, others clad in shrouds.
Griff drew his longsword. Yollo, light the torches. Lad, take Lemore back to her cabin and stay
with her.
Young Griff gave his father a stubborn look. Lemore knows where her cabin is. I want to stay.
We are sworn to protect you, Lemore said softly. I dont need to be protected. I can use a
sword as well as Duck. Im half a knight.
And half a boy, said Griff. Do as you are told. Now.
The youth cursed under his breath and flung his pole down onto the deck. The sound echoed
queerly in the fog, and for a moment it was as if poles were falling around them. Why should I run and
hide? Haldon is staying, and Ysilla. Even Hugor.
Aye, said Tyrion, but Im small enough to hide behind a duck. He thrust half a dozen torches
into the braziers glowing coals and watched the oiled rags flare up. Dont stare at the fire, he told
himself. The flames would leave him night blind.
Youre a dwarf, Young Griff said scornfully. My secret is revealed, Tyrion agreed. Aye, Im
less than half of Haldon, and no one gives a mummers fart whether I live or die. Least of all me. You,
though  you are everything.
Dwarf, said Griff, I warned you
A wail came shivering through the fog, faint and high.

Lemore whirled, trembling. Seven save us all.
The broken bridge was a bare five yards ahead. Around its piers, the water rippled white as the
foam from a madmans mouth. Forty feet above, the stone men moaned and muttered beneath a
flickering lamp. Most took no more notice of the Shy Maid than of a drifting log. Tyrion clutched his
torch tighter and found that he was holding his breath. And then they were beneath the bridge, white
walls heavy with curtains of grey fungus looming to either side, water foaming angrily around them. For
a moment it looked as though they might crash into the right-hand pier, but Duck raised his pole and
shoved off, back into the center of the channel, and a few heartbeats later they were clear.
Tyrion had no sooner exhaled than Young Griff grabbed hold of his arm. What do you mean? I
am everything? What did you mean by that? Why am I everything?
Why, said Tyrion, if the stone men had taken Yandry or Griff or our lovely Lemore, we would
have grieved for them and gone on. Lose you, and this whole enterprise is undone, and all those years of
feverish plotting by the cheesemonger and the eunuch will have been for naught  isnt that so?
The boy looked to Griff. He knows who I am.
If I did not know before, I would now. By then the Shy Maid was well downstream of the Bridge
of Dream. All that remained was a dwindling light astern, and soon enough that would be gone as well.
Youre Young Griff, son of Griff the sellsword, said Tyrion. Or perhaps you are the Warrior in mortal
guise. Let me take a closer look. He held up his torch, so that the light washed over Young Griffs face.
Leave off, Griff commanded, or you will wish you had.
The dwarf ignored him. The blue hair makes your eyes seem blue, thats good. And the tale of
how you color it in honor of your dead Tyroshi mother was so touching it almost made me cry. Still, a
curious man might wonder why some sellswords whelp would need a soiled septa to instruct him in the
Faith, or a chainless maester to tutor him in history and tongues. And a clever man might question why
your father would engage a hedge knight to train you in arms instead of simply sending you off to
apprentice with one of the free companies. It is almost as if someone wanted to keep you hidden whilst
still preparing you for  what? Now, theres a puzzlement, but Im sure that in time it will come to me. I
must admit, you have noble features for a dead boy.
The boy flushed. I am not dead.
How not? My lord father wrapped your corpse in a crimson cloak and laid you down beside
your sister at the foot of the Iron Throne, his gift to the new king. Those who had the stomach to lift the
cloak said that half your head was gone.
The lad backed off a step, confused. Your?
father, aye. Tywin of House Lannister. Perhaps you may have heard of him.
Young Griff hesitated. Lannister? Your father

is dead. At my hand. If it please Your Grace to call me Yollo or Hugor, so be it, but know that I
was born Tyrion of House Lannister, true-born son of Tywin and Joanna, both of whom I slew. Men will
tell you that I am a kingslayer, a kinslayer, and a liar, and all of that is true  but then, we are a company
of liars, are we not? Take your feigned father. Griff, is it? The dwarf sniggered. You should thank the
gods that Varys the Spider is a part of this plot of yours. Griff would not have fooled the cockless wonder
for an instant, no more than it did me. No lord, my lordship says, no knight. And Im no dwarf. Just
saying a thing does not make it true. Who better to raise Prince Rhaegars infant son than Prince
Rhaegars dear friend Jon Connington, once Lord of Griffins Roost and Hand of the King?
Be quiet. Griffs voice was uneasy.
On the larboard side of the boat, a huge stone hand was visible just below the water. Two
fingers broke the surface. How many of those are there? Tyrion wondered. A trickle of moisture ran
down his spine and made him shudder. The Sorrows drifted by them. Peering through the mists, he
glimpsed a broken spire, a headless hero, an ancient tree torn from the ground and upended, its huge
roots twisting through the roof and windows of a broken dome. Why does all of this seem so familiar?
Straight on, a tilted stairway of pale marble rose up out of the dark water in a graceful spiral,
ending abruptly ten feet above their heads. No, thought Tyrion, that is not possible.
Ahead. Lemores voice was shivery. A light.
All of them looked. All of them saw it. Kingfisher, said Griff. Her, or some other like her. But
he drew his sword again.
No one said a word. The Shy Maid moved with the current. Her sail had not been raised since
she first entered the Sorrows. She had no way to move but with the river. Duck stood squinting,
clutching his pole with both hands. After a time even Yandry stopped pushing. Every eye was on the
distant light. As they grew closer, it turned into two lights. Then three.
The Bridge of Dream, said Tyrion. Inconceivable, said Haldon Halfmaester. Weve left the
bridge behind. Rivers only run one way.
Mother Rhoyne runs how she will, murmured Yandry. Seven save us, said Lemore.
Up ahead, the stone men on the span began to wail. A few were pointing down at them.
Haldon, get the prince below, commanded Griff.
It was too late. The current had them in its teeth. They drifted inexorably toward the bridge.
Yandry stabbed out with his pole to keep them from smashing into a pier. The thrust shoved them
sideways, through a curtain of pale grey moss. Tyrion felt tendrils brush against his face, soft as a
whores fingers. Then there was a crash behind him, and the deck tilted so suddenly that he almost lost
his feet and went pitching over the side.
A stone man crashed down into the boat.

He landed on the cabin roof, so heavily that the Shy Maid seemed to rock, and roared a word
down at them in a tongue that Tyrion did not know. A second stone man followed, landing back beside
the tiller. The weathered planks splintered beneath the impact, and Ysilla let out a shriek.
Duck was closest to her. The big man did not waste time reaching for his sword. Instead he
swung his pole, slamming it into the stone mans chest and knocking him off the boat into the river,
where he sank at once without a sound.
Griff was on the second man the instant he shambled down off the cabin roof. With a sword in
his right hand and a torch in his left, he drove the creature backwards. As the current swept the Shy
Maid beneath the bridge, their shifting shadows danced upon the mossy walls. When the stone man
moved aft, Duck blocked his way, pole in hand. When he went forward, Haldon Halfmaester waved a
second torch at him and drove him back. He had no choice but to come straight at Griff. The captain slid
aside, his blade flashing. A spark flew where the steel bit into the stone mans calcified grey flesh, but his
arm tumbled to the deck all the same. Griff kicked the limb aside. Yandry and Duck had come up with
their poles. Together they forced the creature over the side and into the black waters of the Rhoyne.
By then the Shy Maid had drifted out from under the broken bridge. Did we get them all?
asked Duck. How many jumped?
Two, said Tyrion, shivering. Three, said Haldon. Behind you.
The dwarf turned, and there he stood.
The leap had shattered one of his legs, and a jagged piece of pale bone jutted out through the
rotted cloth of his breeches and the grey meat beneath. The broken bone was speckled with brown
blood, but still he lurched forward, reaching for Young Griff. His hand was grey and stiff, but blood oozed
between his knuckles as he tried to close his fingers to grasp. The boy stood staring, as still as if he too
were made of stone. His hand was on his sword hilt, but he seemed to have forgotten why.
Tyrion kicked the lads leg out from under him and leapt over him when he fell, thrusting his
torch into the stone mans face to send him stumbling backwards on his shattered leg, flailing at the
flames with stiff grey hands. The dwarf waddled after him, slashing with the torch, jabbing it at the
stone mans eyes. A little farther. Back, one more step, another. They were at the edge of the deck when
the creature rushed him, grabbed the torch, and ripped it from his hands. Bugger me, thought Tyrion.
The stone man flung the torch away. There was a soft hiss as the black waters quenched the
flames. The stone man howled. He had been a Summer Islander, before; his jaw and half his cheek had
turned to stone, but his skin was black as midnight where it was not grey. Where he had grasped the
torch, his skin had cracked and split. Blood was seeping from his knuckles though he did not seem to feel
it. That was some small mercy, Tyrion supposed. Though mortal, greyscale was supposedly not painful.
Stand aside! someone shouted, far away, and another voice said, The prince! Protect the
boy! The stone man staggered forward, his hands outstretched and grasping.

Tyrion drove a shoulder into him.
It felt like slamming into a castle wall, but this castle stood upon a shattered leg. The stone man
went over backwards, grabbing hold of Tyrion as he fell. They hit the river with a towering splash, and
Mother Rhoyne swallowed up the two of them.
The sudden cold hit Tyrion like a hammer. As he sank he felt a stone hand fumbling at his face.
Another closed around his arm, dragging him down into darkness. Blind, his nose full of river, choking,
sinking, he kicked and twisted and fought to pry the clutching fingers off his arm, but the stone fingers
were unyielding. Air bubbled from his lips. The world was black and growing blacker. He could not
breathe.
There are worse ways to die than drowning. And if truth be told, he had perished long ago, back
in Kings Landing. It was only his revenant who remained, the small vengeful ghost who throttled Shae
and put a cross-bow bolt through the great Lord Tywins bowels. No man would mourn the thing that
hed become. Ill haunt the Seven Kingdoms, he thought, sinking deeper. They would not love me living,
so let them dread me dead.
When he opened his mouth to curse them all, black water filled his lungs, and the dark closed in
around him.
DAVOS
His lordship will hear you now, smuggler.
The knight wore silver armor, his greaves and gauntlet inlaid with niello to suggest flowing
fronds of seaweed. The helm beneath his arm was the head of the merling king, with a crown of
mother-of-pearl and a jutting beard of jet and jade. His own beard was as grey as the winter sea.
Davos rose. May I know your name, ser?
Ser Marlon Manderly. He was a head taller than Davos and three stones heavier, with
slate-grey eyes and a haughty way of speaking. I have the honor to be Lord Wymans cousin and
commander of his garrison. Follow me.
Davos had come to White Harbor as an envoy, but they had made him a captive. His chambers
were large, airy, and handsomely furnished, but there were guards outside his doors. From his window
he could see the streets of White Harbor beyond the castle walls, but he was not allowed to walk them.
He could see the harbor too, and had watched Merry Midwife make her way down the firth. Casso
Mogat had waited four days instead of three before departing. Another fortnight had passed since then.
Lord Manderlys household guard wore cloaks of blue-green wool and carried silver tridents in
place of common spears. One went before him, one behind, and one to either side. They walked past

the faded banners, broken shields, and rusted swords of a hundred ancient victories, and a score of
wooden figures, cracked and worm-riddled, that could only have adorned the prows of ships.
Two marble mermen flanked his lordships court, Fishfoots smaller cousins. As the guards threw
open the doors, a herald slammed the butt of his staff against an old plank floor. Ser Davos of House
Seaworth, he called in a ringing voice.
As many times as he had visited White Harbor, Davos had never set foot inside the New Castle,
much less the Mermans Court. Its walls and floor and ceiling were made of wooden planks notched
cunningly together and decorated with all the creatures of the sea. As they approached the dais, Davos
trod on painted crabs and clams and starfish, half-hidden amongst twisting black fronds of seaweed and
the bones of drowned sailors. On the walls to either side, pale sharks prowled painted blue-green
depths, whilst eels and octopods slithered amongst rocks and sunken ships. Shoals of herring and great
codfish swam between the tall arched windows. Higher up, near where the old fishing nets drooped
down from the rafters, the surface of the sea had been depicted. To his right a war galley stroked serene
against the rising sun; to his left, a battered old cog raced before a storm, her sails in rags. Behind the
dais a kraken and grey leviathan were locked in battle beneath the painted waves.
Davos had hoped to speak with Wyman Manderly alone, but he found a crowded court. Along
the walls, the women outnumbered the men by five to one; what few males he did see had long grey
beards or looked too young to shave. There were septons as well, and holy sisters in white robes and
grey. Near the top of the hall stood a dozen men in the blue and silver-grey of House Frey. Their faces
had a likeness a blind man could have seen; several wore the badge of the Twins, two towers connected
by a bridge.
Davos had learned to read mens faces long before Maester Pylos had taught him to read words
on paper. These Freys would gladly see me dead, he realized at a glance.
Nor did he find any welcome in the pale blue eyes of Wyman Manderly. His lordships cushioned
throne was wide enough to accommodate three men of common girth, yet Manderly threatened to
overflow it. His lordship sagged into his seat, his shoulders slumped, his legs splayed, his hands resting
on the arms of his throne as if the weight of them were too much to bear. Gods be good, thought Davos,
when he saw Lord Wymans face, this man looks half a corpse. His skin was pallid, with an undertone of
grey.
Kings and corpses always draw attendants, the old saying went. So it was with Manderly. Left of
the high seat stood a maester nigh as fat as the lord he served, a rosy-cheeked man with thick lips and a
head of golden curls. Ser Marlon claimed the place of honor at his lordships right hand. On a cushioned
stool at his feet perched a plump pink lady. Behind Lord Wyman stood two younger women, sisters by
the look of them. The elder wore her brown hair bound in a long braid. The younger, no more than
fifteen, had an even longer braid, dyed a garish green.
None chose to honor Davos with a name. The maester was the first to speak. You stand before
Wyman Manderly, Lord of White Harbor and Warden of the White Knife, Shield of the Faith, Defender of

the Dispossessed, Lord Marshal of the Mander, a Knight of the Order of the Green Hand, he said. In
the Mermans Court, it is customary for vassals and petitioners to kneel.
The onion knight would have bent his knee, but a Kings Hand could not; to do so would suggest
that the king he served was less than this fat lord. I have not come as a petitioner, Davos replied. I
have a string of titles too. Lord of the Rainwood, Admiral of the Narrow Sea, Hand of the King.
The plump woman on the stool rolled her eyes. An admiral without ships, a hand without
fingers, in service to a king without a throne. Is this a knight who comes before us, or the answer to a
childs riddle?
He is a messenger, good-daughter, Lord Wyman said, an onion of ill omen. Stannis did not
like the answer his ravens brought him, so he has sent this  this smuggler. He squinted at Davos
through eyes half-buried in rolls of fat. You have visited our city before, I think, taking coin from our
pockets and food off our table. How much did you steal from me, I wonder?
Not enough that you ever missed a meal. I paid for my smuggling at Storms End, my lord.
Davos pulled off his glove and held up his left hand, with its four shortened fingers.
Four fingertips, for a lifetimes worth of theft? said the woman on the stool. Her hair was
yellow, her face round and pink and fleshy. You got off cheaply, Onion Knight.
Davos did not deny it. If it please my lord, I would request a privy audience.
It did not please the lord. I keep no secrets from my kin, nor from my leal lords and knights,
good friends all.
My lord, said Davos, I would not want my words to be heard by His Graces enemies  or by
your lordships.
Stannis may have enemies in this hall. I do not.
Not even the men who slew your son? Davos pointed. These Freys were amongst his hosts at
the Red Wedding.
One of the Freys stepped forward, a knight long and lean of limb, clean-shaved but for a grey
mustache as thin as a Myrish stiletto. The Red Wedding was the Young Wolfs work. He changed into a
beast before our eyes and tore out the throat of my cousin Jinglebell, a harmless simpleton. He would
have slain my lord father too, if Ser Wendel had not put himself in the way.
Lord Wyman blinked back tears. Wendel was always a brave boy. I was not surprised to learn
he died a hero.
The enormity of the lie made Davos gasp. Is it your claim that Robb Stark killed Wendel
Manderly? he asked the Frey.

And many more. Mine own son Tytos was amongst them, and my daughters husband. When
Stark changed into a wolf, his northmen did the same. The mark of the beast was on them all. Wargs
birth other wargs with a bite, it is well-known. It was all my brothers and I could do to put them down
before they slew us all.
The man was smirking as he told the tale. Davos wanted to peel his lips off with a knife. Ser,
may I have your name?
Ser Jared, of House Frey.
Jared of House Frey, I name you liar.
Ser Jared seemed amused. Some men cry when slicing onions, but I have never had that
weakness. Steel whispered against leather as he drew his sword. If you are indeed a knight, ser,
defend that slander with your body.
Lord Wymans eyes fluttered open. Ill have no bloodshed in the Mermans Court. Put up your
steel, Ser Jared, else I must ask you to leave my presence.
Ser Jared sheathed his sword. Beneath your lordships roof, your lord-ships word is law  but I
shall want a reckoning with this onion lord before he leaves this city.
Blood! howled the woman on the stool. Thats what this ill onion wants of us, my lord. See
how he stirs up trouble? Send him away, I beg you. He wants the blood of your people, the blood of
your brave sons. Send him away. Should the queen hear that you gave audience to this traitor, she may
question our own loyalty. She might  she could  she 
It will not come to that, good-daughter, Lord Wyman said. The Iron Throne shall have no
cause to doubt us.
Davos misliked the sound of that, but he had not come all this way to hold his tongue. The boy
on the Iron Throne is a usurper, he said, and I am no traitor, but the Hand of Stannis Baratheon, the
First of His Name, the trueborn King of Westeros.
The fat maester cleared his throat. Stannis Baratheon was brother to our late King Robert, may
the Father judge him justly. Tommen is the issue of Roberts body. The laws of succession are clear in
such a case. A son must come before a brother.
Maester Theomore speaks truly, said Lord Wyman. He is wise in all such matters, and has
always given me good counsel.
A trueborn son comes before a brother, Davos agreed, but Tommen-called-Baratheon is
bastard-born, as his brother Joffrey was before him. They were sired by the Kingslayer, in defiance of all
the laws of gods and men.

Another of the Freys spoke up. He speaks treason with his own lips, my lord. Stannis took his
thieving fingers. You should take his lying tongue.
Take his head, rather, suggested Ser Jared. Or let him meet me on the field of honor.
What would a Frey know of honor? Davos threw back.
Four of the Freys started forward until Lord Wyman halted them with an upraised hand. Step
back, my friends. I will hear him out before I  before I deal with him.
Can you offer any proof of this incest, ser? Maester Theomore asked, folding his soft hands
atop his belly.
Edric Storm, thought Davos, but I sent him far away across the narrow sea, to keep him safe
from Melisandres fires. You have the word of Stannis Baratheon that all Ive said is true.
Words are wind, said the young woman behind Lord Wymans high seat, the handsome one
with the long brown braid. And men will lie to get their way, as any maid could tell you.
Proof requires more than some lords unsupported word, declared Maester Theomore.
Stannis Baratheon would not be the first man who ever lied to win a throne.
The pink woman pointed a plump finger down at Davos. We want no part of any treason, you.
We are good people in White Harbor, lawful, loyal people. Pour no more poison in our ears, or my
good-father will send you to the Wolfs Den.
How have I offended this one? Might I have the honor of my ladys name?
The pink woman gave an angry sniff and let the maester answer. The Lady Leona is wife to Lord
Wymans son Ser Wylis, presently a captive of the Lannisters.
She speaks from fear. If White Harbor should declare for Stannis, her husband would answer
with his life. How can I ask Lord Wyman to condemn his son to death? What would I do in his place if
Devan were a hostage? My lord, said Davos, I pray no harm will come to your son, or to any man of
White Harbor.
Another lie, said Lady Leona from her stool.
Davos thought it best to ignore her. When Robb Stark took up arms against the bastard
Joffrey-called-Baratheon, White Harbor marched with him. Lord Stark has fallen, but his war goes on.
Robb Stark was my liege lord, said Lord Wyman. Who is this man Stannis? Why does he
trouble us? He never felt the need to journey north before, as best I can recall. Yet he turns up now, a
beaten cur with his helm in his hand, begging for alms.
He came to save the realm, my lord, Davos insisted. To defend your lands against the
ironborn and the wildlings.

Next to the high seat, Ser Marlon Manderly gave a snort of disdain. It has been centuries since
White Harbor has seen any wildlings, and the ironmen have never troubled this coast. Does Lord Stannis
propose to defend us from snarks and dragons too?
Laughter swept the Mermans Court, but at Lord Wymans feet, Lady Leona began to sob.
Ironmen from the isles, wildlings from beyond the Wall  and now this traitor lord with his outlaws,
rebels, and sorcerers. She pointed a finger at Davos. We have heard of your red witch, oh yes. She
would turn us against the Seven to bow before a fire demon!
Davos had no love for the red priestess, but he dare not let Lady Leona go unanswered. Lady
Melisandre is a priestess of the red god. Queen Selyse has adopted her faith, along with many others,
but more of His Graces followers still worship the Seven. Myself among them. He prayed no one would
ask him to explain about the sept at Dragonstone or the godswood at Storms End. If they ask, I must
needs tell them. Stannis would not have me lie.
The Seven defend White Harbor, Lady Leona declared. We do not fear your red queen or her
god. Let her send what spells she will. The prayers of godly men will shield us against evil.
Indeed. Lord Wyman gave Lady Leona a pat on the shoulder. Lord Davos, if you are a lord, I
know what your so-called king would have of me. Steel and silver and a bended knee. He shifted his
weight to lean upon an elbow. Before he was slain, Lord Tywin offered White Harbor full pardon for our
support of the Young Wolf. He promised that my son would be returned to me once I paid a ransom of
three thousand dragons and proved my loyalty beyond a doubt. Roose Bolton, who is named our
Warden of the North, requires that I give up my claim to Lord Horn-woods lands and castles but swears
my other holdings shall remain untouched. Walder Frey, his good-father, offers one of his daughters to
be my wife, and husbands for my sons daughters here behind me. These terms seem generous to me, a
good basis for a fair and lasting peace. You would have me spurn them. So I ask you, Onion
Knightwhat does Lord Stannis offer me in return for my allegiance?
War and woe and the screams of burning men, Davos might have said. The chance to do your
duty, he replied instead. That was the answer Stannis would have given Wyman Manderly. The Hand
should speak with the kings voice.
Lord Wyman sagged back in his chair. Duty. I see.
White Harbor is not strong enough to stand alone. You need His Grace as much as he needs
you. Together you can defeat your common enemies.
My lord, said Ser Marlon, in his ornate silver armor, will you permit me to ask a few questions
of Lord Davos?
As you wish, cousin. Lord Wyman closed his eyes.
Ser Marlon turned to Davos. How many northern lords have declared for Stannis? Tell us that.

Arnolf Karstark has vowed to join His Grace.
Arnolf is no true lord, only a castellan. What castles does Lord Stannis hold at present, pray?
His Grace has taken the Nightfort for his seat. In the south, he holds Storms End and
Dragonstone.
Maester Theomore cleared his throat. Only for the nonce. Storms End and Dragonstone are
lightly held and must soon fall. And the Nightfort is a haunted ruin, a drear and dreadful place.
Ser Marlon went on. How many men can Stannis put into the field, can you tell us that? How
many knights ride with him? How many bowmen, how many freeriders, how many men-at-arms?
Too few, Davos knew. Stannis had come north with no more than fifteen hundred men  but if
he told them that, his mission here was doomed. He fumbled for words and found none.
Your silence is all the answer I require, ser. Your king brings us only enemies. Ser Marlon
turned to his lord cousin. Your lordship asked the onion knight what Stannis offers us. Let me answer.
He offers us defeat and death. He would have you mount a horse of air and give battle with a sword of
wind.
The fat lord opened his eyes slowly, as if the effort were almost too much for him. My cousin
cuts to the bone, as ever. Do you have any more to say to me, Onion Knight, or can we put an end to this
mummers farce? I grow weary of your face.
Davos felt a stab of despair. His Grace should have sent another man, a lord or knight or
maester, someone who could speak for him without tripping on his own tongue. Death, he heard
himself say, there will be death, aye. Your lordship lost a son at the Red Wedding. I lost four upon the
Blackwater. And why? Because the Lannisters stole the throne. Go to Kings Landing and look on
Tommen with your own eyes, if you doubt me. A blind man could see it. What does Stannis offer you?
Vengeance. Vengeance for my sons and yours, for your husbands and your fathers and your brothers.
Vengeance for your murdered lord, your murdered king, your butchered princes. Vengeance!
Yes, piped a girls voice, thin and high.
It belonged to the half-grown child with the blond eyebrows and the long green braid. They
killed Lord Eddard and Lady Catelyn and King Robb, she said. He was our king! He was brave and good,
and the Freys murdered him. If Lord Stannis will avenge him, we should join Lord Stannis.
Manderly pulled her close. Wylla, every time you open your mouth you make me want to send
you to the silent sisters.
I only said
We heard what you said, said the older girl, her sister. A childs foolishness. Speak no ill of
our friends of Frey. One of them will be your lord and husband soon.

No, the girl declared, shaking her head. I wont. I wont ever. They killed the king.
Lord Wyman flushed. You will. When the appointed day arrives, you will speak your wedding
vows, else you will join the silent sisters and never speak again.
The poor girl looked stricken. Grandfather, please  Hush, child, said Lady Leona. You
heard your lord grandfather. Hush! You know nothing.
I know about the promise, insisted the girl. Maester Theomore, tell them! A thousand years
before the Conquest, a promise was made, and oaths were sworn in the Wolfs Den before the old gods
and the new. When we were sore beset and friendless, hounded from our homes and in peril of our
lives, the wolves took us in and nourished us and protected us against our enemies. The city is built
upon the land they gave us. In return we swore that we should always be their men. Stark men!
The maester fingered the chain about his neck. Solemn oaths were sworn to the Starks of
Winterfell, aye. But Winterfell has fallen and House Stark has been extinguished.
Thats because they killed them all!
Another Frey spoke up. Lord Wyman, if I may?
Wyman Manderly gave him a nod. Rhaegar. We are always pleased to hear your noble
counsel.
Rhaegar Frey acknowledged the compliment with a bow. He was thirty, or nigh unto,
round-shouldered and kettle-bellied, but richly dressed in a doublet of soft grey lambswool trimmed in
cloth-of-silver. His cloak was cloth-of-silver too, lined with vair and clasped at the collar with a brooch in
the shape of the twin towers. Lady Wylla, he said to the girl with the green braid, loyalty is a virtue. I
hope you will be as loyal to Little Walder when you are joined in wedlock. As to the Starks, that House is
extinguished only in the male line. Lord Eddards sons are dead, but his daughters live, and the younger
girl is coming north to wed brave Ramsay Bolton.
Ramsay Snow, Wylla Manderly threw back. Have it as you will. By any name, he shall soon be
wed to Arya Stark. If you would keep faith with your promise, give him your allegiance, for he shall be
your Lord of Winterfell.
He wont ever be my lord! He made Lady Hornwood marry him, then shut her in a dungeon and
made her eat her fingers.
A murmur of assent swept the Mermans Court. The maid tells it true, declared a stocky man
in white and purple, whose cloak was fastened with a pair of crossed bronze keys. Roose Boltons cold
and cunning, aye, but a man can deal with Roose. Weve all known worse. But this bastard son of his 
they say hes mad and cruel, a monster.
They say? Rhaegar Frey sported a silky beard and a sardonic smile. His enemies say, aye  but
it was the Young Wolf who was the monster. More beast than boy, that one, puffed up with pride and

bloodlust. And he was faithless, as my lord grandfather learned to his sorrow. He spread his hands. I
do not fault White Harbor for supporting him. My grandsire made the same grievous mistake. In all the
Young Wolfs battles, White Harbor and the Twins fought side by side beneath his banners. Robb Stark
betrayed us all. He abandoned the north to the cruel mercies of the ironmen to carve out a fairer
kingdom for himself along the Trident. Then he abandoned the riverlords who had risked much and
more for him, breaking his marriage pact with my grandfather to wed the first western wench who
caught his eye. The Young Wolf? He was a vile dog and died like one.
The Mermans Court had grown still. Davos could feel the chill in the air. Lord Wyman was
looking down at Rhaegar as if he were a roach in need of a hard heel  yet then, abruptly, he gave a
ponderous nod that set his chins to wobbling. A dog, aye. He brought us only grief and death. A vile dog
indeed. Say on.
Rhaegar Frey went on. Grief and death, aye  and this onion lord will bring you more with his
talk of vengeance. Open your eyes, as my lord grandsire did. The War of the Five Kings is all but done.
Tommen is our king, our only king. We must help him bind up the wounds of this sad war. As Roberts
trueborn son, the heir of stag and lion, the Iron Throne is his by rights.
Wise words, and true, said Lord Wyman Manderly. They werent. Wylla Manderly stamped
her foot. Be quiet, wretched child, scolded Lady Leona. Young girls should be an ornament to the eye,
not an ache in the ear. She seized the girl by her braid and pulled her squealing from the hall. There
went my only friend in this hall, thought Davos.
Wylla has always been a willful child, her sister said, by way of apology. I fear that she will
make a willful wife.
Rhaegar shrugged. Marriage will soften her, I have no doubt. A firm hand and a quiet word.
If not, there are the silent sisters. Lord Wyman shifted in his seat. As for you, Onion Knight, I
have heard sufficient treason for one day. You would have me risk my city for a false king and a false
god. You would have me sacrifice my only living son so Stannis Baratheon can plant his puckered arse
upon a throne to which he has no right. I will not do it. Not for you. Not for your lord. Not for any man.
The Lord of White Harbor pushed himself to his feet. The effort brought a red flush to his neck. You are
still a smuggler, ser, come to steal my gold and blood. You would take my sons head. I think I shall take
yours instead. Guards! Seize this man!
Before Davos could even think to move, he was surrounded by silver tridents. My lord, he
said, I am an envoy.
Are you? You came sneaking into my city like a smuggler. I say you are no lord, no knight, no
envoy, only a thief and a spy, a peddler of lies and treasons. I should tear your tongue out with hot
pincers and deliver you to the Dreadfort to be flayed. But the Mother is merciful, and so am I. He
beckoned to Ser Marlon. Cousin, take this creature to the Wolfs Den and cut off his head and hands. I

want them brought to me before I sup. I shall not be able to eat a bite until I see this smugglers head
upon a spike, with an onion shoved between his lying teeth.
REEK
They gave him a horse and a banner, a soft woolen doublet and a warm fur cloak, and set him
loose. For once, he did not stink. Come back with that castle, said Damon Dance-for-Me as he helped
Reek climb shaking into the saddle, or keep going and see how far you get before we catch you. Hed
like that, he would. Grinning, Damon gave the horse a lick across the rump with his whip, and the old
stot whinnied and lurched into motion.
Reek did not dare to look back, for fear that Damon and Yellow Dick and Grunt and the rest
were coming after him, that all of this was just another of Lord Ramsays japes, some cruel test to see
what he would do if they gave him a horse and set him free. Do they think that I will run? The stot they
had given him was a wretched thing, knock-kneed and half-starved; he could never hope to outdistance
the fine horses Lord Ramsay and his hunters would be riding. And Ramsay loved nothing more than to
set his girls baying on the trail of some fresh prey.
Besides, where would he run to? Behind him were the camps, crowded with Dreadfort men and
those the Ryswells had brought from the Rills, with the Barrowton host between them. South of Moat
Cailin, another army was coming up the causeway, an army of Boltons and Freys marching beneath the
banners of the Dreadfort. East of the road lay a bleak and barren shore and a cold salt sea, to the west
the swamps and bogs of the Neck, infested with serpents, lizard lions, and bog devils with their poisoned
arrows.
He would not run. He could not run.
I will deliver him the castle. I will. I must.
It was a grey day, damp and misty. The wind was from the south, moist as a kiss. The ruins of
Moat Cailin were visible in the distance, threaded through with wisps of morning mist. His horse moved
toward them at a walk, her hooves making faint wet squelching sounds as they pulled free of the
grey-green muck.
I have come this way before. It was a dangerous thought, and he regretted it at once. No, he
said, no, that was some other man, that was before you knew your name. His name was Reek. He had
to remember that. Reek, Reek, it rhymes with leek.
When that other man had come this way, an army had followed close behind him, the great
host of the north riding to war beneath the grey-and-white banners of House Stark. Reek rode alone,
clutching a peace banner on a pinewood staff. When that other man had come this way, he had been
mounted on a courser, swift and spirited. Reek rode a broken-down stot, all skin and bone and ribs, and

he rode her slowly for fear he might fall off. The other man had been a good rider, but Reek was uneasy
on horseback. It had been so long. He was no rider. He was not even a man. He was Lord Ramsays
creature, lower than a dog, a worm in human skin. You will pretend to be a prince, Lord Ramsay told
him last night, as Reek was soaking in a tub of scalding water, but we know the truth. Youre Reek.
Youll always be Reek, no matter how sweet you smell. Your nose may lie to you. Remember your name.
Remember who you are.
Reek, he said. Your Reek.
Do this little thing for me, and you can be my dog and eat meat ever y day, Lord Ramsay
promised. You will be tempted to betray me. To run or fight or join our foes. No, quiet, Ill not hear you
deny it. Lie to me, and Ill take your tongue. A man would turn against me in your place, but we know
what you are, dont we? Betray me if you want, it makes no matter  but count your fingers first and
know the cost.
Reek knew the cost. Seven, he thought, seven fingers. A man can make do with seven fingers.
Seven is a sacred number. He remembered how much it had hurt when Lord Ramsay had commanded
Skinner to lay his ring finger bare.
The air was wet and heavy, and shallow pools of water dotted the ground. Reek picked his way
between them carefully, following the remnants of the log-and-plank road that Robb Starks vanguard
had laid down across the soft ground to speed the passage of his host. Where once a mighty curtain wall
had stood, only scattered stones remained, blocks of black basalt so large it must once have taken a
hundred men to hoist them into place. Some had sunk so deep into the bog that only a corner showed;
others lay strewn about like some gods abandoned toys, cracked and crumbling, spotted with lichen.
Last nights rain had left the huge stones wet and glistening, and the morning sunlight made them look
as if they were coated in some fine black oil.
Beyond stood the towers.
The Drunkards Tower leaned as if it were about to collapse, just as it had for half a thousand
years. The Childrens Tower thrust into the sky as straight as a spear, but its shattered top was open to
the wind and rain. The Gatehouse Tower, squat and wide, was the largest of the three, slimy with moss,
a gnarled tree growing sideways from the stones of its north side, fragments of broken wall still standing
to the east and west. The Karstarks took the Drunkards Tower and the Umbers the Childrens Tower, he
recalled. Robb claimed the Gatehouse Tower for his own.
If he closed his eyes, he could see the banners in his minds eye, snapping bravely in a brisk
north wind. All gone now, all fallen. The wind on his cheeks was blowing from the south, and the only
banners flying above the remains of Moat Cailin displayed a golden kraken on a field of black.
He was being watched. He could feel the eyes. When he looked up, he caught a glimpse of pale
faces peering from behind the battlements of the Gatehouse Tower and through the broken masonry

that crowned the Childrens Tower, where legend said the children of the forest had once called down
the hammer of the waters to break the lands of Westeros in two.
The only dry road through the Neck was the causeway, and the towers of Moat Cailin plugged its
northern end like a cork in a bottle. The road was narrow, the ruins so positioned that any enemy
coming up from the south must pass beneath and between them. To assault any of the three towers, an
attacker must expose his back to arrows from the other two, whilst climbing damp stone walls
festooned with streamers of slimy white ghostskin. The swampy ground beyond the causeway was
impassable, an endless morass of suckholes, quicksands, and glistening green swards that looked solid
to the unwary eye but turned to water the instant you trod upon them, the whole of it infested with
venomous serpents and poisonous flowers and monstrous lizard lions with teeth like daggers. Just as
dangerous were its people, seldom seen but always lurking, the swamp-dwellers, the frog-eaters, the
mud-men. Fenn and Reed, Peat and Boggs, Cray and Quagg, Greengood and Blackmyre, those were the
sorts of names they gave themselves. The ironborn called them all bog devils.
Reek passed the rotted carcass of a horse, an arrow jutting from its neck. A long white snake
slithered into its empty eye socket at his approach. Behind the horse he spied the rider, or what
remained of him. The crows had stripped the flesh from the mans face, and a feral dog had burrowed
beneath his mail to get at his entrails. Farther on, another corpse had sunk so deep into the muck that
only his face and fingers showed.
Closer to the towers, corpses littered the ground on every side. Blood-blooms had sprouted
from their gaping wounds, pale flowers with petals plump and moist as a womans lips.
The garrison will never know me. Some might recall the boy hed been before he learned his
name, but Reek would be a stranger to them. It had been a long while since he last looked into a glass,
but he knew how old he must appear. His hair had turned white; much of it had fallen out, and what was
left was stiff and dry as straw. The dungeons had left him weak as an old woman and so thin a strong
wind could knock him down.
And his hands  Ramsay had given him gloves, fine gloves of black leather, soft and supple,
stuffed with wool to conceal his missing fingers, but if anyone looked closely, he would see that three of
his fingers did not bend.
No closer! a voice rang out. What do you want?
Words. He spurred the stot onward, waving the peace banner so they could not fail to see it.
I come unarmed.
There was no reply. Inside the walls, he knew, the ironmen were discussing whether to admit
him or fill his chest with arrows. It makes no matter. A quick death here would be a hundred times
better than returning to Lord Ramsay as a failure.
Then the gatehouse doors flung open. Quickly. Reek was turning toward the sound when the
arrow struck. It came from somewhere to his right, where broken chunks of the curtain wall lay

half-submerged beneath the bog. The shaft tore through the folds of his banner and hung spent, the
point a bare foot from his face. It startled him so badly that he dropped the peace banner and tumbled
from his saddle.
Inside, the voice shouted, hurry, fool, hurry!
Reek scrambled up the steps on hands and knees as another arrow fluttered over his head.
Someone seized him and dragged him inside, and he heard the door crash shut behind him. He was
pulled to his feet and shoved against a wall. Then a knife was at his throat, a bearded face so close to his
that he could count the mans nose hairs. Who are you? Whats your purpose here? Quick now, or Ill
do you the same as him. The guard jerked his head toward a body rotting on the floor beside the door,
its flesh green and crawling with maggots.
I am ironborn, Reek answered, lying. The boy hed been before had been ironborn, true
enough, but Reek had come into this world in the dungeons of the Dreadfort. Look at my face. I am
Lord Balons son. Your prince. He would have said the name, but somehow the words caught in his
throat. Reek, Im Reek, it rhymes with squeak. He had to forget that for a little while, though. No man
would ever yield to a creature such as Reek, no matter how desperate his situation. He must pretend to
be a prince again.
His captor stared at his face, squinting, his mouth twisted in suspicion. His teeth were brown,
and his breath stank of ale and onion. Lord Balons sons were killed.
My brothers. Not me. Lord Ramsay took me captive after Winterfell. Hes sent me here to treat
with you. Do you command here?
Me? The man lowered his knife and took a step backwards, almost stumbling over the corpse.
Not me, mlord. His mail was rusted, his leathers rotting. On the back of one hand an open sore wept
blood. Ralf Kenning has the command. The captain said. Im on the door, is all.
And who is this? Reek gave the corpse a kick.
The guard stared at the dead man as if seeing him for the first time. Him  he drank the water.
I had to cut his throat for him, to stop his screaming. Bad belly. You cant drink the water. Thats why we
got the ale. The guard rubbed his face, his eyes red and inflamed. We used to drag the dead down into
the cellars. All the vaults are flooded down there. No one wants to take the trouble now, so we just
leave them where they fall.
The cellar is a better place for them. Give them to the water. To the Drowned God.
The man laughed. No gods down there, mlord. Only rats and water snakes. White things, thick
as your leg. Sometimes they slither up the steps and bite you in your sleep.

Reek remembered the dungeons underneath the Dreadfort, the rat squirming between his
teeth, the taste of warm blood on his lips. If I fail, Ramsay will send me back to that, but first hell flay
the skin from another finger. How many of the garrison are left?
Some, said the ironman. I dont know. Fewer than we was before. Some in the Drunkards
Tower too, I think. Not the Childrens Tower. Dagon Codd went over there a few days back. Only two
men left alive, he said, and they was eating on the dead ones. He killed them both, if you can believe
that.
Moat Cailin has fallen, Reek realized then, only no one has seen fit to tell them. He rubbed his
mouth to hide his broken teeth, and said, I need to speak with your commander.
Kenning? The guard seemed confused. He dont have much to say these days. Hes dying.
Might be hes dead. I havent seen him since  I dont remember when 
Where is he? Take me to him.
Who will keep the door, then?
Him. Reek gave the corpse a kick.
That made the man laugh. Aye. Why not? Come with me, then. He pulled a torch down from a
wall sconce and waved it till it blazed up bright and hot. This way. The guard led him through a door
and up a spiral stair, the torchlight glimmering off black stone walls as they climbed.
The chamber at the top of the steps was dark, smoky, and oppressively hot. A ragged skin had
been hung across the narrow window to keep the damp out, and a slab of peat smoldered in a brazier.
The smell in the room was foul, a miasma of mold and piss and nightsoil, of smoke and sickness. Soiled
rushes covered the floor, whilst a heap of straw in the corner passed for a bed.
Ralf Kenning lay shivering beneath a mountain of furs. His arms were stacked beside
himsword and axe, mail hauberk, iron warhelm. His shield bore the storm gods cloudy hand, lightning
crackling from his fingers down to a raging sea, but the paint was discolored and peeling, the wood
beneath starting to rot.
Ralf was rotting too. Beneath the furs he was naked and feverish, his pale puffy flesh covered
with weeping sores and scabs. His head was misshapen, one cheek grotesquely swollen, his neck so
engorged with blood that it threatened to swallow his face. The arm on that same side was big as a log
and crawling with white worms. No one had bathed him or shaved him for many days, from the look of
him. One eye wept pus, and his beard was crusty with dried vomit. What happened to him? asked
Reek.
He was on the parapets and some bog devil loosed an arrow at him. It was only a graze, but 
they poison their shafts, smear the points with shit and worse things. We poured boiling wine into the
wound, but it made no difference.

I cannot treat with this thing. Kill him, Reek told the guard. His wits are gone. Hes full of
blood and worms.
The man gaped at him. The captain put him in command.
Youd put a dying horse down.
What horse? I never had no horse.
I did. The memory came back in a rush. Smilers screams had sounded almost human. His mane
afire, he had reared up on his hind legs, blind with pain, lashing out with his hooves. No, no. Not mine,
he was not mine, Reek never had a horse. I will kill him for you. Reek snatched up Ralf Kennings sword
where it leaned against his shield. He still had fingers enough to clasp the hilt. When he laid the edge of
the blade against the swollen throat of the creature on the straw, the skin split open in a gout of black
blood and yellow pus. Kenning jerked violently, then lay still. An awful stench filled the room. Reek
bolted for the steps. The air was damp and cold there, but much cleaner by comparison. The ironman
stumbled out after him, white-faced and struggling not to retch. Reek grasped him by the arm. Who
was second-in-command? Where are the rest of the men?
Up on the battlements, or in the hall. Sleeping, drinking. Ill take you if you like.
Do it now. Ramsay had only given him a day.
The hall was dark stone, high ceilinged and drafty, full of drifting smoke, its stone walls spotted
by huge patches of pale lichen. A peat fire burned low in a hearth blackened by the hotter blazes of
years past. A massive table of carved stone filled the chamber, as it had for centuries. There was where I
sat, the last time I was here, he remembered. Robb was at the head of the table, with the Greatjon to his
right and Roose Bolton on his left. The Glovers sat next to Helman Tallhart. Karstark and his sons were
across from them.
Two dozen ironborn sat drinking at the table. A few looked at him with dull, flat eyes when he
entered. The rest ignored him. All the men were strangers to him. Several wore cloaks fastened by
brooches in the shape of silver codfish. The Codds were not well regarded in the Iron Islands; the men
were said to be thieves and cowards, the women wantons who bedded with their own fathers and
brothers. It did not surprise him that his uncle had chosen to leave these men behind when the Iron
Fleet went home. This will make my task that much easier. Ralf Kenning is dead, he said. Who
commands here?
The drinkers stared at him blankly. One laughed. Another spat. Finally one of the Codds said,
Who asks?
Lord Balons son. Reek, my name is Reek, it rhymes with cheek. I am here at the command of
Ramsay Bolton, Lord of the Hornwood and heir to the Dreadfort, who captured me at Winterfell. His
host is north of you, his fathers to the south, but Lord Ramsay is prepared to be merciful if you yield

Moat Cailin to him before the sun goes down. He drew out the letter that theyd given him and tossed
it on the table before the drinkers.
One of them picked it up and turned it over in his hands, picking at the pink wax that sealed it.
After a moment he said, Parchment. What good is that? Its cheese we need, and meat.
Steel, you mean, said the man beside him, a greybeard whose left arm ended in a stump.
Swords. Axes. Aye, and bows, a hundred more bows, and men to loose the arrows.
Ironborn do not surrender, said a third voice. Tell that to my father. Lord Balon bent the knee
when Robert broke his wall. Elsewise he would have died. As you will if you do not yield. He gestured at
the parchment. Break the seal. Read the words. That is a safe conduct, written in Lord Ramsays own
hand. Give up your swords and come with me, and his lordship will feed you and give you leave to
march unmolested to the Stony Shore and find a ship for home. Elsewise you die.
Is that a threat? One of the Codds pushed to his feet. A big man, but pop-eyed and wide of
mouth, with dead white flesh. He looked as if his father had sired him on a fish, but he still wore a
longsword. Dagon Codd yields to no man.
No, please, you have to listen. The thought of what Ramsay would do to him if he crept back to
camp without the garrisons surrender was almost enough to make him piss his breeches. Reek, Reek, it
rhymes with leak. Is that your answer? The words rang feebly in his ears. Does this codfish speak for
all of you?
The guard who had met him at the door seemed less certain. Victarion commanded us to hold,
he did. I heard him with my own ears. Hold here till I return, he told Kenning.
Aye, said the one-armed man. Thats what he said. The kingsmoot called, but he swore that
hed be back, with a driftwood crown upon his head and a thousand men behind him.
My uncle is never coming back, Reek told them. The kingswood crowned his brother Euron,
and the Crows Eye has other wars to fight. You think my uncle values you? He doesnt. You are the ones
he left behind to die. He scraped you off the same way he scrapes mud off his boots when he wades
ashore.
Those words struck home. He could see it in their eyes, in the way they looked at one another or
frowned above their cups. They all feared theyd been abandoned, but it took me to turn fear into
certainty. These were not the kin of famous captains nor the blood of the great Houses of the Iron
Islands. These were the sons of thralls and salt wives.
If we yield, we walk away? said the one-armed man. Is that what it says on this here
writing? He nudged the roll of parchment, its wax seal still unbroken.
Read it for yourself, he answered, though he was almost certain that none of them could read.
Lord Ramsay treats his captives honorably so long as they keep faith with him. He has only taken toes

and fingers and that other thing, when he might have had my tongue, or peeled the skin off my legs from
heel to thigh. Yield up your swords to him, and you will live.
Liar. Dagon Codd drew his longsword. Youre the one they call Turncloak. Why should we
believe your promises?
He is drunk, Reek realized. The ale is speaking. Believe what you want. I have brought Lord
Ramsays message. Now I must return to him. Well sup on wild boar and neeps, washed down with
strong red wine. Those who come with me will be welcome at the feast. The rest of you will die within a
day. The Lord of the Dreadfort will bring his knights up the causeway, whilst his son leads his own men
down on you from the north. No quarter will be granted. The ones that die fighting will be the lucky
ones. Those who live will be given to the bog devils.
Enough, snarled Dagon Codd. You think you can frighten ironborn with words? Begone. Run
back to your master before I open your belly, pull your entrails out, and make you eat them.
He might have said more, but suddenly his eyes gaped wide. A throwing axe sprouted from the
center of his forehead with a solid thunk. Codds sword fell from his fingers. He jerked like a fish on a
hook, then crashed face-first onto the table.
It was the one-armed man whod flung the axe. As he rose to his feet he had another in his
hand. Who else wants to die? he asked the other drinkers. Speak up, Ill see you do. Thin red
streams were spreading out across the stone from the pool of blood where Dagon Codds head had
come to rest. Me, I mean to live, and that dont mean staying here to rot.
One man took a swallow of ale. Another turned his cup over to wash away a finger of blood
before it reached the place where he was seated. No one spoke. When the one-armed man slid the
throwing axe back through his belt, Reek knew he had won. He almost felt a man again. Lord Ramsay
will be pleased with me.
He pulled down the kraken banner with his own two hands, fumbling some because of his
missing fingers but thankful for the fingers that Lord Ramsay had allowed him to keep. It took the better
part of the afternoon before the ironborn were ready to depart. There were more of them than he
would have guessed forty-seven in the Gatehouse Tower and another eighteen in the Drunkards
Tower. Two of those were so close to dead there was no hope for them, another five too weak to walk.
That still left fifty-eight who were fit enough to fight. Weak as they were, they would have taken three
times their own number with them if Lord Ramsay had stormed the ruins. He did well to send me, Reek
told himself as he climbed back onto his stot to lead his ragged column back across the boggy ground to
where the northmen were encamped. Leave your weapons here, he told the prisoners. Swords,
bows, daggers. Armed men will be slain on sight.
It took them thrice as long to cover the distance as it had taken Reek alone. Crude litters had
been patched together for four of the men who could not walk; the fifth was carried by his son, upon his
back. It made for slow going, and all the ironborn were well aware of how exposed they were, well

within bowshot of the bog devils and their poisoned arrows. If I die, I die. Reek only prayed the archer
knew his business, so death would be quick and clean. A mans death, not the end Ralf Kenning suffered.
The one-armed man walked at the head of the procession, limping heavily. His name, he said,
was Adrack Humble, and he had a rock wife and three salt wives back on Great Wyk. Three of the four
had big bellies when we sailed, he boasted, and Humbles run to twins. First thing Ill need to do when I
get back is count up my new sons. Might be Ill even name one after you, mlord.
Aye, name him Reek, he thought, and when hes bad you can cut his toes off and give him rats to
eat. He turned his head and spat, and wondered if Ralf Kenning hadnt been the lucky one.
A light rain had begun to piss down out of the slate-grey sky by the time Lord Ramsays camp
appeared in front of them. A sentry watched them pass in silence. The air was full of drifting smoke from
the cookfires drowning in the rain. A column of riders came wheeling up behind them, led by a lordling
with a horsehead on his shield. One of Lord Ryswells sons, Reek knew. Roger, or maybe Rickard. He
could not tell the two of them apart. Is this all of them? the rider asked from atop a chestnut stallion.
All who werent dead, my lord.
I thought there would be more. We came at them three times, and three times they threw us
back.
We are ironborn, he thought, with a sudden flash of pride, and for half a heartbeat he was a
prince again, Lord Balons son, the blood of Pyke. Even thinking was dangerous, though. He had to
remember his name. Reek, my name is Reek, it rhymes with weak.
They were just outside the camp when the baying of a pack of hounds told of Lord Ramsays
approach. Whoresbane was with him, along with half a dozen of his favorites, Skinner and Sour Alyn and
Damon Dance-for-Me, and the Walders Big and Little too. The dogs swarmed around them, snapping
and snarling at the strangers. The Bastards girls, Reek thought, before he remembered that one must
never, never, never use that word in Ramsays presence.
Reek swung down from his saddle and took a knee. My lord, Moat Cailin is yours. Here are its
last defenders.
So few. I had hoped for more. They were such stubborn foes. Lord Ramsays pale eyes shone.
You must be starved. Damon, Alyn, see to them. Wine and ale, and all the food that they can eat.
Skinner, show their wounded to our maesters.
Aye, my lord.
A few of the ironborn muttered thanks before they shambled off toward the cookfires in the
center of the camp. One of the Codds even tried to kiss Lord Ramsays ring, but the hounds drove him
back before he could get close, and Alison took a chunk of his ear. Even as the blood streamed down his
neck, the man bobbed and bowed and praised his lordships mercy.

When the last of them were gone, Ramsay Bolton turned his smile on Reek. He clasped him by
the back of the head, pulled his face close, kissed him on his cheek, and whispered, My old friend Reek.
Did they really take you for their prince? What bloody fools, these ironmen. The gods are laughing.
All they want is to go home, my lord.
And what do you want, my sweet Reek? Ramsay murmured, as softly as a lover. His breath
smelled of mulled wine and cloves, so sweet. Such valiant service deserves a reward. I cannot give you
back your fingers or your toes, but surely there is something you would have of me. Shall I free you
instead? Release you from my service? Do you want to go with them, return to your bleak isles in the
cold grey sea, be a prince again? Or would you sooner stay my leal serving man?
A cold knife scraped along his spine. Be careful, he told himself, be very, very careful. He did not
like his lordships smile, the way his eyes were shining, the spittle glistening at the corner of his mouth.
He had seen such signs before. You are no prince. Youre Reek, just Reek, it rhymes with freak. Give him
the answer that he wants.
My lord, he said, my place is here, with you. Im your Reek. I only want to serve you. All I ask
 a skin of wine, that would be reward enough for me  red wine, the strongest that you have, all the
wine a man can drink 
Lord Ramsay laughed. Youre not a man, Reek. Youre just my creature. Youll have your wine,
though. Walder, see to it. And fear not, I wont return you to the dungeons, you have my word as a
Bolton. Well make a dog of you instead. Meat every day, and Ill even leave you teeth enough to eat it.
You can sleep beside my girls. Ben, do you have a collar for him?
Ill have one made, mlord, said old Ben Bones.
The old man did better than that. That night, besides the collar, there was a ragged blanket too,
and half a chicken. Reek had to fight the dogs for the meat, but it was the best meal hed had since
Winterfell.
And the wine  the wine was dark and sour, but strong. Squatting amongst the hounds, Reek
drank until his head swam, retched, wiped his mouth, and drank some more. Afterward he lay back and
closed his eyes. When he woke a dog was licking vomit from his beard, and dark clouds were scuttling
across the face of a sickle moon. Somewhere in the night, men were screaming. He shoved the dog
aside, rolled over, and went back to sleep.
The next morning Lord Ramsay dispatched three riders down the causeway to take word to his
lord father that the way was clear. The flayed man of House Bolton was hoisted above the Gatehouse
Tower, where Reek had hauled down the golden kraken of Pyke. Along the rotting-plank road, wooden
stakes were driven deep into the boggy ground; there the corpses festered, red and dripping.
Sixty-three, he knew, there are sixty-three of them. One was short half an arm. Another had a parchment
shoved between its teeth, its wax seal still unbroken.

Three days later, the vanguard of Roose Boltons host threaded its way through the ruins and
past the row of grisly sentinelsfour hundred mounted Freys clad in blue and grey, their spearpoints
glittering whenever the sun broke through the clouds. Two of old Lord Walders sons led the van. One
was brawny, with a massive jut of jaw and arms thick with muscle. The other had hungry eyes close-set
above a pointed nose, a thin brown beard that did not quite conceal the weak chin beneath it, a bald
head. Hosteen and Aenys. He remembered them from before he knew his name. Hosteen was a bull,
slow to anger but implacable once roused, and by repute the fiercest fighter of Lord Walders get. Aenys
was older, crueler, and more clevera commander, not a swordsman. Both were seasoned soldiers.
The northmen followed hard behind the van, their tattered banners streaming in the wind. Reek
watched them pass. Most were afoot, and there were so few of them. He remembered the great host
that marched south with Young Wolf, beneath the direwolf of Winterfell. Twenty thousand swords and
spears had gone off to war with Robb, or near enough to make no matter, but only two in ten were
coming back, and most of those were Dreadfort men.
Back where the press was thickest at the center of the column rode a man armored in dark grey
plate over a quilted tunic of blood-red leather. His rondels were wrought in the shape of human heads,
with open mouths that shrieked in agony. From his shoulders streamed a pink woolen cloak
embroidered with droplets of blood. Long streamers of red silk fluttered from the top of his closed helm.
No crannogman will slay Roose Bolton with a poisoned arrow, Reek thought when he first saw him. An
enclosed wagon groaned along behind him, drawn by six heavy draft horses and defended by
crossbowmen, front and rear. Curtains of dark blue velvet concealed the wagons occupants from
watching eyes.
Farther back came the baggage trainlumbering wayns laden with provisions and loot taken in
the war, and carts crowded with wounded men and cripples. And at the rear, more Freys. At least a
thousand, maybe more: bowmen, spearmen, peasants armed with scythes and sharpened sticks,
freeriders and mounted archers, and another hundred knights to stiffen them.
Collared and chained and back in rags again, Reek followed with the other dogs at Lord
Ramsays heels when his lordship strode forth to greet his father. When the rider in the dark armor
removed his helm, however, the face beneath was not one that Reek knew. Ramsays smile curdled at
the sight, and anger flashed across his face. What is this, some mockery?
Just caution, whispered Roose Bolton, as he emerged from behind the curtains of the
enclosed wagon.
The Lord of the Dreadfort did not have a strong likeness to his bastard son. His face was
clean-shaved, smooth-skinned, ordinary, not handsome but not quite plain. Though Roose had been in
battles, he bore no scars. Though well past forty, he was as yet unwrinkled, with scarce a line to tell of
the passage of time. His lips were so thin that when he pressed them together they seemed to vanish
altogether. There was an agelessness about him, a stillness; on Roose Boltons face, rage and joy looked
much the same. All he and Ramsay had in common were their eyes. His eyes are ice. Reek wondered if
Roose Bolton ever cried. If so, do the tears feel cold upon his cheeks?

Once, a boy called Theon Greyjoy had enjoyed tweaking Bolton as they sat at council with Robb
Stark, mocking his soft voice and making japes about leeches. He must have been mad. This is no man to
jape with. You had only to look at Bolton to know that he had more cruelty in his pinky toe than all the
Freys combined.
Father. Lord Ramsay knelt before his sire.
Lord Roose studied him for a moment. You may rise. He turned to help two young women
down from inside the wagon.
The first was short and very fat, with a round red face and three chins wobbling beneath a sable
hood. My new wife, Roose Bolton said. Lady Walda, this is my natural son. Kiss your stepmothers
hand, Ramsay. He did. And I am sure you will recall the Lady Arya. Your betrothed.
The girl was slim, and taller than he remembered, but that was only to be expected. Girls grow
fast at that age. Her dress was grey wool bordered with white satin; over it she wore an ermine cloak
clasped with a silver wolfs head. Dark brown hair fell halfway down her back. And her eyes 
That is not Lord Eddards daughter.
Arya had her fathers eyes, the grey eyes of the Starks. A girl her age might let her hair grow
long, add inches to her height, see her chest fill out, but she could not change the color of her eyes.
Thats Sansas little friend, the stewards girl. Jeyne, that was her name. Jeyne Poole.
Lord Ramsay. The girl dipped down before him. That was wrong as well. The real Arya Stark
would have spat into his face. I pray that I will make you a good wife and give you strong sons to follow
after you.
That you will, promised Ramsay, and soon.
JON
His candle had guttered out in a pool of wax, but morning light was shining through the shutters
of his window. Jon had fallen asleep over his work again. Books covered his table, tall stacks of them.
Hed fetched them up himself, after spending half the night searching through dusty vaults by lantern
light. Sam was right, the books desperately needed to be sorted, listed, and put in order, but that was no
task for stewards who could neither read nor write. It would need to wait for Sams return.
If he does return. Jon feared for Sam and Maester Aemon. Cotter Pyke had written from
Eastwatch to report that the Storm Crow had sighted the wreckage of a galley along the coast of Skagos.
Whether the broken ship was Blackbird, one of Stannis Baratheons sellsails, or some passing trader, the
crew of the Storm Crow had not been able to discern. I meant to send Gilly and the babe to safety. Did I
send them to their graves instead?

Last nights supper had congealed beside his elbow, scarce touched. Dolorous Edd had filled his
trencher almost to overflowing to allow Three-Finger Hobbs infamous three-meat stew to soften the
stale bread. The jest among the brothers was that the three meats were mutton, mutton, and mutton,
but carrot, onion, and turnip would have been closer to the mark. A film of cold grease glistened atop
the remains of the stew.
Bowen Marsh had urged him to move into the Old Bears former chambers in the Kings Tower
after Stannis vacated them, but Jon had declined. Moving into the kings chambers could too easily be
taken to mean he did not expect the king to return.
A strange listlessness had settled over Castle Black since Stannis had marched south, as if the
free folk and the black brothers alike were holding their breath, waiting to see what would come. The
yards and dining hall were empty more oft than not, the Lord Commanders Tower was a shell, the old
common hall a pile of blackened timbers, and Hardins Tower looked as if the next gust of wind would
knock it over. The only sound of life that Jon could hear was the faint clash of swords coming from the
yard outside the armory. Iron Emmett was shouting at Hop-Robin to keep his shield up. We had all best
keep our shields up.
Jon washed and dressed and left the armory, stopping in the yard outside just long enough to
say a few words of encouragement to Hop-Robin and Emmetts other charges. He declined Tys offer of
a tail, as usual. He would have men enough about him; if it came to blood, two more would hardly
matter. He did take Longclaw, though, and Ghost followed at his heels.
By the time he reached the stable, Dolorous Edd had the lord commanders palfrey saddled and
bridled and waiting for him. The wayns were forming up beneath Bowen Marshs watchful eye. The Lord
Steward was trotting down the column, pointing and fussing, his cheeks red from the cold. When he
spied Jon, they reddened even more. Lord Commander. Are you still intent on this 
 folly? finished Jon. Please tell me you were not about to say folly, my lord. Yes, I am. We
have been over this. Eastwatch wants more men. The Shadow Tower wants more men. Greyguard and
Icemark as well, I have no doubt, and we have fourteen other castles still sitting empty, long leagues of
Wall that remain unwatched and undefended.
Marsh pursed his lips. Lord Commander Mormont
is dead. And not at wildling hands, but at the hands of his own Sworn Brothers, men he
trusted. Neither you nor I can know what he would or would not have done in my place. Jon wheeled
his horse around. Enough talk. Away.
Dolorous Edd had heard the entire exchange. As Bowen Marsh trotted off, he nodded toward
his back and said, Pomegranates. All those seeds. A man could choke to death. Id sooner have a turnip.
Never knew a turnip to do a man any harm.
It was at times like this that Jon missed Maester Aemon the most. Clydas tended to the ravens
well enough, but he had not a tenth of Aemon Targaryens knowledge or experience, and even less of

his wisdom. Bowen was a good man in his way, but the wound he had taken at the Bridge of Skulls had
hardened his attitudes, and the only song he ever sang now was his familiar refrain about sealing the
gates. Othell Yarwyck was as stolid and unimaginative as he was taciturn, and the First Rangers seemed
to die as quick as they were named. The Nights Watch has lost too many of its best men, Jon reflected,
as the wagons began to move. The Old Bear, Qhorin Halfhand, Donal Noye, Jarmen Buckwell, my uncle 
A light snow began to fall as the column made its way south along the kingsroad, the long line of
wagons wending past fields and streams and wooded hillsides, with a dozen spearmen and a dozen
archers riding escort. The last few trips had seen some ugliness at Moles Town, a little pushing and
shoving, some muttered curses, a lot of sullen looks. Bowen Marsh felt it best not to take chances, and
for once he and Jon were agreed.
The Lord Steward led the way. Jon rode a few yards back, Dolorous Edd Tollett at his side. Half a
mile south of Castle Black, Edd urged his garron close to Jons and said, Mlord? Look up there. The big
drunkard on the hill.
The drunkard was an ash tree, twisted sideways by centuries of wind. And now it had a face. A
solemn mouth, a broken branch for a nose, two eyes carved deep into the trunk, gazing north up the
kingsroad, toward the castle and the Wall.
The wildlings brought their gods with them after all. Jon was not surprised. Men do not give up
their gods so easily. The whole pageant that Lady Melisandre had orchestrated beyond the Wall
suddenly seemed as empty as a mummers farce. Looks a bit like you, Edd, he said, trying to make light
of it.
Aye, mlord. I dont have leaves growing out my nose, but else-wise  Lady Melisandre wont
be happy.
Shes not like to see it. See that no one tells her.
She sees things in those fires, though.
Smoke and cinders.
And people burning. Me, most like. With leaves up my nose. I always feared Id burn, but I was
hoping to die first.
Jon glanced back at the face, wondering who had carved it. He had posted guards around Moles
Town, both to keep his crows away from the wildling women and to keep the free folk from slipping off
southward to raid. Whoever had carved up the ash had eluded his sentries, plainly. And if one man
could slip through the cordon, others could as well. I could double the guard again, he thought sourly.
Waste twice as many men, men who might otherwise be walking the Wall.
The wagons continued on their slow way south through frozen mud and blowing snow. A mile
farther on, they came upon a second face, carved into a chestnut tree that grew beside an icy stream,

where its eyes could watch the old plank bridge that spanned its flow. Twice as much trouble,
announced Dolorous Edd.
The chestnut was leafless and skeletal, but its bare brown limbs were not empty. On a low
branch overhanging the stream a raven sat hunched, its feathers ruffled up against the cold. When it
spied Jon it spread its wings and gave a scream. When he raised his fist and whistled, the big black bird
came flapping down, crying, Corn, corn, corn.
Corn for the free folk, Jon told him. None for you. He wondered if they would all be reduced
to eating ravens before the coming winter had run its course.
The brothers on the wagons had seen this face as well, Jon did not doubt. No one spoke of it,
but the message was plain to read for any man with eyes. Jon had once heard Mance Rayder say that
most kneelers were sheep. Now, a dog can herd a flock of sheep, the King-Beyond-the-Wall had said,
but free folk, well, some are shadowcats and some are stones. One kind prowls where they please and
will tear your dogs to pieces. The other will not move at all unless you kick them. Neither shadowcats
nor stones were like to give up the gods they had worshiped all their lives to bow down before one they
hardly knew.
Just north of Moles Town they came upon the third watcher, carved into the huge oak that
marked the village perimeter, its deep eyes fixed upon the kingsroad. That is not a friendly face, Jon
Snow reflected. The faces that the First Men and the children of the forest had carved into the
weirwoods in eons past had stern or savage visages more oft than not, but the great oak looked
especially angry, as if it were about to tear its roots from the earth and come roaring after them. Its
wounds are as fresh as the wounds of the men who carved it.
Moles Town had always been larger than it seemed; most of it was underground, sheltered
from the cold and snow. That was more true than ever now. The Magnar of Thenn had put the empty
village to the torch when he passed through on his way to attack Castle Black, and only heaps of
blackened beams and old scorched stones remained aboveground  but down beneath the frozen
earth, the vaults and tunnels and deep cellars still endured, and that was where the free folk had taken
refuge, huddled together in the dark like the moles from which the village took its name.
The wagons drew up in a crescent in front of what had once been the village smithy. Nearby a
swarm of red-faced children were building a snow fort, but they scattered at the sight of the
black-cloaked brothers, vanishing down one hole or another. A few moments later the adults began to
emerge from the earth. A stench came with them, the smell of unwashed bodies and soiled clothing, of
nightsoil and urine. Jon saw one of his men wrinkle his nose and say something to the man beside him.
Some jape about the smell of freedom, he guessed. Too many of his brothers were making japes about
the stench of the savages in Moles Town.
Pig ignorance, Jon thought. The free folk were no different than the men of the Nights Watch;
some were clean, some dirty, but most were clean at times and dirty at other times. This stink was just

the smell of a thousand people jammed into cellars and tunnels that had been dug to shelter no more
than a hundred.
The wildlings had done this dance before. Wordless, they formed up in lines behind the wagons.
There were three women for every man, many with childrenpale skinny things clutching at their skirts.
Jon saw very few babes in arms. The babes in arms died during the march, he realized, and those who
survived the battle died in the kings stockade.
The fighters had fared better. Three hundred men of fighting age, Justin Massey had claimed in
council. Lord Harwood Fell had counted them. There will be spearwives too. Fifty, sixty, maybe as many
as a hundred. Fells count had included men who had suffered wounds, Jon knew. He saw a score of
thosemen on crude crutches, men with empty sleeves and missing hands, men with one eye or half a
face, a legless man carried between two friends. And every one grey-faced and gaunt. Broken men, he
thought. The wights are not the only sort of living dead.
Not all the fighting men were broken, though. Half a dozen Thenns in bronze scale armor stood
clustered round one cellar stair, watching sullenly and making no attempt to join the others. In the ruins
of the old village smithy Jon spied a big bald slab of a man he recognized as Halleck, the brother of
Harma Dogshead. Harmas pigs were gone, though. Eaten, no doubt. Those two in furs were Hornfoot
men, as savage as they were scrawny, barefoot even in the snow. There are wolves amongst these
sheep, still.
Val had reminded him of that, on his last visit with her. Free folk and kneelers are more alike
than not, Jon Snow. Men are men and women women, no matter which side of the Wall we were born
on. Good men and bad, heroes and villains, men of honor, liars, cravens, brutes  we have plenty, as do
you.
She was not wrong. The trick was telling one from the other, parting the sheep from the goats.
The black brothers began to pass out food. Theyd brought slabs of hard salt beef, dried cod,
dried beans, turnips, carrots, sacks of barley meal and wheaten flour, pickled eggs, barrels of onions and
apples. You can have an onion or an apple, Jon heard Hairy Hal tell one woman, but not both. You got
to pick.
The woman did not seem to understand. I need two of each. One o each for me, tothers for
my boy. Hes sick, but an apple will set him right.
Hal shook his head. He has to come get his own apple. Or his onion. Not both. Same as you.
Now, is it an apple or an onion? Be quick about it, now, theres more behind you.
An apple, she said, and he gave her one, an old dried thing, small and withered.
Move along, woman, shouted a man three places back. Its cold out here.

The woman paid the shout no mind. Another apple, she said to Hairy Hal. For my son. Please.
This one is so little.
Hal looked to Jon. Jon shook his head. They would be out of apples soon enough. If they started
giving two to everyone who wanted two, the latecomers would get none.
Out of the way, a girl behind the woman said. Then she shoved her in the back. The woman
staggered, lost her apple, and fell. The other foodstuffs in her arms went flying. Beans scattered, a
turnip rolled into a mud puddle, a sack of flour split and spilled its precious contents in the snow.
Angry voices rose, in the Old Tongue and the Common. More shoving broke out at another
wagon. Its not enough, an old man snarled. You bloody crows are starving us to death. The woman
whod been knocked down was scrabbling on her knees after her food. Jon saw the flash of naked steel
a few yards away. His own bowmen nocked arrows to their strings.
He turned in his saddle. Rory. Quiet them.
Rory lifted his great horn to his lips and blew.
AAAAhooooooooooooooooooooooooooooooooooooooooooo.
The tumult and the shoving died. Heads turned. A child began to cry. Mormonts raven walked
from Jons left shoulder to his right, bobbing its head and muttering, Snow, snow, snow.
Jon waited until the last echoes had faded, then spurred his palfrey forward where everyone
could see him. Were feeding you as best we can, as much as we can spare. Apples, onions, neeps,
carrots  theres a long winter ahead for all of us, and our stores are not inexhaustible.
You crows eat good enough. Halleck shoved forward.
For now. We hold the Wall. The Wall protects the realm  and you now. You know the foe we
face. You know whats coming down on us. Some of you have faced them before. Wights and white
walkers, dead things with blue eyes and black hands. Ive seen them too, fought them, sent one to hell.
They kill, then they send your dead against you. The giants were not able to stand against them, nor you
Thenns, the ice-river clans, the Hornfoots, the free folk  and as the days grow shorter and the nights
colder, they are growing stronger. You left your homes and came south in your hundreds and your
thousands  why, but to escape them? To be safe. Well, its the Wall that keeps you safe. Its us that
keeps you safe, the black crows you despise.
Safe and starved, said a squat woman with a windburned face, a spearwife by the look of her.
You want more food? asked Jon. The foods for fighters. Help us hold the Wall, and youll eat
as well as any crow. Or as poorly, when the food runs short.
A silence fell. The wildlings exchanged wary looks. Eat, the raven muttered. Corn, corn.

Fight for you? This voice was thickly accented. Sigorn, the young Magnar of Thenn, spoke the
Common Tongue haltingly at best. Not fight for you. Kill you better. Kill all you.
The raven flapped its wings. Kill, kill.
Sigorns father, the old Magnar, had been crushed beneath the falling stair during his attack on
Castle Black. I would feel the same if someone asked me to make common cause with the Lannisters, Jon
told himself. Your father tried to kill us all, he reminded Sigorn. The Magnar was a brave man, yet he
failed. And if he had succeeded  who would hold the Wall? He turned away from the Thenns.
Winterfells walls were strong as well, but Winterfell stands in ruins today, burned and broken. A wall is
only as good as the men defending it.
An old man with a turnip cradled against his chest said, You kill us, you starve us, now you want
t make us slaves.
A chunky red-faced man shouted assent. Id sooner go naked than wear one o them black rags
on my back.
One of the spearwives laughed. Even your wife dont want to see you naked, Butts.
A dozen voices all began to speak at once. The Thenns were shouting in the Old Tongue. A little
boy began to cry. Jon Snow waited until all of it had died down, then turned to Hairy Hal and said, Hal,
what was it that you told this woman?
Hal looked confused. About the food, you mean? An apple or an onion? Thats all I said. They
got to pick.
You have to pick, Jon Snow repeated. All of you. No one is asking you to take our vows, and I
do not care what gods you worship. My own gods are the old gods, the gods of the North, but you can
keep the red god, or the Seven, or any other god who hears your prayers. Its spears we need. Bows.
Eyes along the Wall.
I will take any boy above the age of twelve who knows how to hold a spear or string a bow. I
will take your old men, your wounded, and your cripples, even those who can no longer fight. There are
other tasks they may be able to perform. Fletching arrows, milking goats, gathering fire-wood, mucking
out our stables  the work is endless. And yes, I will take your women too. I have no need of blushing
maidens looking to be protected, but I will take as many spearwives as will come.
And girls? a girl asked. She looked as young as Arya had, the last time Jon had seen her.
Sixteen and older.
Youre taking boys as young as twelve.
Down in the Seven Kingdoms boys of twelve were often pages or squires; many had been
training at arms for years. Girls of twelve were children. These are wildlings, though. As you will. Boys

and girls as young as twelve. But only those who know how to obey an order. That goes for all of you. I
will never ask you to kneel to me, but I will set captains over you, and serjeants who will tell you when
to rise and when to sleep, where to eat, when to drink, what to wear, when to draw your swords and
loose your arrows. The men of the Nights Watch serve for life. I will not ask that of you, but so long as
you are on the Wall you will be under my command. Disobey an order, and Ill have your head off. Ask
my brothers if I wont. Theyve seen me do it.
Off, screamed the Old Bears raven. Off, off, off.
The choice is yours, Jon Snow told them. Those who want to help us hold the Wall, return to
Castle Black with me and Ill see you armed and fed. The rest of you, get your turnips and your onions
and crawl back inside your holes.
The girl was the first to come forward. I can fight. My mother was a spearwife. Jon nodded.
She may not even be twelve, he thought, as she squirmed between a pair of old men, but he was not
about to turn away his only recruit.
A pair of striplings followed her, boys no older than fourteen. Next a scarred man with a missing
eye. I seen them too, the dead ones. Even crows are bettern that. A tall spearwife, an old man on
crutches, a moon-faced boy with a withered arm, a young man whose red hair reminded Jon of Ygritte.
And then Halleck. I dont like you, crow, he growled, but I never liked the Mance neither, no
moren my sister did. Still, we fought for him. Why not fight for you?
The dam broke then. Halleck was a man of note. Mance was not wrong. Free folk dont follow
names, or little cloth animals sewn on a tunic, the King-Beyond-the-Wall had told him. They wont
dance for coins, they dont care how you style yourself or what that chain of office means or who your
grandsire was. They follow strength. They follow the man.
Hallecks cousins followed Halleck, then one of Harmas banner-bearers, then men whod fought
with her, then others who had heard tales of their prowess. Greybeards and green boys, fighting men in
their prime, wounded men and cripples, a good score of spearwives, even three Horn-foot men.
But no Thenns. The Magnar turned and vanished back into the tunnels, and his bronze-clad
minions followed hard at his heels.
By the time the last withered apple had been handed out, the wagons were crowded with
wildlings, and they were sixty-three stronger than when the column had set out from Castle Black that
morning. What will you do with them? Bowen Marsh asked Jon on the ride back up the kingsroad.
Train them, arm then, and split them up. Send them where theyre needed. Eastwatch, the
Shadow Tower, Icemark, Greyguard. I mean to open three more forts as well.
The Lord Steward glanced back. Women too? Our brothers are not accustomed to having
women amongst them, my lord. Their vows  there will be fights, rapes 

These women have knives and know how to use them.
And the first time one of these spearwives slits the throat of one of our brothers, what then?
We will have lost a man, said Jon, but we have just gained sixty-three. Youre good at
counting, my lord. Correct me if Im wrong, but my reckoning leaves us sixty-two ahead.
Marsh was unconvinced. Youve added sixty-three more mouths, my lord  but how many are
fighters, and whose side will they fight on? If its the Others at the gates, most like theyll stand with us, I
grant you  but if its Tormund Giantsbane or the Weeping Man come calling with ten thousand howling
killers, what then?
Then well know. So let us hope it never comes to that.
TYRION
He dreamt of his lord father and the Shrouded Lord. He dreamt that they were one and the
same, and when his father wrapped stone arms around him and bent to give him his grey kiss, he woke
with his mouth dry and rusty with the taste of blood and his heart hammering in his chest.
Our dead dwarf has returned to us, Haldon said.
Tyrion shook his head to clear away the webs of dream. The Sorrows. I was lost in the Sorrows. I
am not dead.
That remains to be seen. The Halfmaester stood over him. Duck, be a fine fowl and boil some
broth for our little friend here. He must be famished.
He was on the Shy Maid, Tyrion saw, under a scratchy blanket that smelled of vinegar. The
Sorrows are behind us. It was just a dream I dreamed as I was drowning. Why do I stink of vinegar?
Lemore has been washing you with it. Some say it helps prevent the greyscale. I am inclined to
doubt that, but there was no harm in trying. It was Lemore who forced the water from your lungs after
Griff had pulled you up. You were as cold as ice, and your lips were blue. Yandry said we ought to throw
you back, but the lad forbade it.
The prince. Memory came rushing back: the stone man reaching out with cracked grey hands,
the blood seeping from his knuckles. He was heavy as a boulder, pulling me under. Griff brought me
up? He must hate me, or he would have let me die. How long have I been sleeping? What place is
this?
Selhorys. Haldon produced a small knife from his sleeve. Here, he said, tossing it underhand
at Tyrion.

The dwarf flinched. The knife landed between his feet and stood quivering in the deck. He
plucked it out. Whats this?
Take off your boots. Prick each of your toes and fingers.
That sounds  painful.
I hope so. Do it.
Tyrion yanked off one boot and then the other, peeled down his hose, squinted at his toes. It
seemed to him they looked no better or worse than usual. He poked gingerly at one big toe.
Harder, urged Haldon Halfmaester.
Do you want me to draw blood?
If need be.
Ill have a scab on every toe.
The purpose of the exercise is not to count your toes. I want to see you wince. So long as the
pricks hurt, you are safe. It is only when you cannot feel the blade that you will have cause to fear.
Greyscale. Tyrion grimaced. He stabbed another toe, cursed as a bead of blood welled up
around the knifes point. That hurt. Are you happy?
Dancing with joy.
Your feet smell worse than mine, Yollo. Duck had a cup of broth. Griff warned you not to lay
hands upon the stone men.
Aye, but he forgot to warn the stone men not to lay their hands upon me.
As you prick, look for patches of dead grey skin, for nails beginning to turn black, said Haldon.
If you see such signs, do not hesitate. Better to lose a toe than a foot. Better to lose an arm than spend
your days wailing on the Bridge of Dream. Now the other foot, if you please. Then your fingers.
The dwarf recrossed his stunted legs and began to prick the other set of toes. Shall I prick my
prick as well?
It would not hurt.
It would not hurt you is what you mean. Though I had as well slice it off for all the use I make of
it.
Feel free. We will have it tanned and stuffed and sell it for a fortune. A dwarfs cock has magical
powers.

I have been telling all the women that for years. Tyrion drove the daggers point into the ball
of his thumb, watched the blood bead up, sucked it away. How long must I continue to torture myself?
When will we be certain that Im clean?
Truly? said the Halfmaester. Never. You swallowed half the river. You may be going grey even
now, turning to stone from inside out, starting with your heart and lungs. If so, pricking your toes and
bathing in vinegar will not save you. When youre done, come have some broth.
The broth was good, though Tyrion noted that the Halfmaester kept the table between them as
he ate. The Shy Maid was moored to a weathered pier on the east bank of the Rhoyne. Two piers down,
a Volantene river galley was discharging soldiers. Shops and stalls and storehouses huddled beneath a
sandstone wall. The towers and domes of the city were visible beyond it, reddened by the light of the
setting sun.
No, not a city. Selhorys was still accounted a mere town, and was ruled from Old Volantis. This
was not Westeros.
Lemore emerged on deck with the prince in tow. When she saw Tyrion, she rushed across the
deck to hug him. The Mother is merciful. We have prayed for you, Hugor.
You did, at least. I wont hold that against you.
Young Griffs greeting was less effusive. The princeling was in a sullen mood, angry that he had
been forced to remain on the Shy Maid instead of going ashore with Yandry and Ysilla. We only want to
keep you safe, Lemore told him. These are unsettled times.
Haldon Halfmaester explained. On the way down from the Sorrows to Selhorys, we thrice
glimpsed riders moving south along the rivers eastern shore. Dothraki. Once they were so close we
could hear the bells tinkling in their braids, and sometimes at night their fires could be seen beyond the
eastern hills. We passed warships as well, Volantene river galleys crammed with slave soldiers. The
triarchs fear an attack upon Selhorys, plainly.
Tyrion understood that quick enough. Alone amongst the major river towns, Selhorys stood
upon the eastern bank of the Rhoyne, making it much more vulnerable to the horselords than its sister
towns across the river. Even so, it is a small prize. If I were khal, I would feint at Selhorys, let the
Volantenes rush to defend it, then swing south and ride hard for Volantis itself.
I know how to use a sword, Young Griff was insisting.
Even the bravest of your forebears kept his Kingsguard close about him in times of peril.
Lemore had changed out of her septas robes into garb more befitting the wife or daughter of a
prosperous merchant. Tyrion watched her closely. He had sniffed out the truth beneath the dyed blue
hair of Griff and Young Griff easily enough, and Yandry and Ysilla seemed to be no more than they
claimed to be, whilst Duck was somewhat less. Lemore, though  Who is she, really? Why is she here?
Not for gold, Id judge. What is this prince to her? Was she ever a true septa?

Haldon took note of her change of garb as well. What are we to make of this sudden loss of
faith? I preferred you in your septas robes, Lemore.
I preferred her naked, said Tyrion.
Lemore gave him a reproachful look. That is because you have a wicked soul. Septas robes
scream of Westeros and might draw unwelcome eyes onto us. She turned back to Prince Aegon. You
are not the only one who must needs hide.
The lad did not seem appeased. The perfect prince but still half a boy for all that, with little and
less experience of the world and all its woes. Prince Aegon, said Tyrion, since were both stuck aboard
this boat, perhaps you will honor me with a game of cyvasse to while away the hours?
The prince gave him a wary look. I am sick of cyvasse.
Sick of losing to a dwarf, you mean?
That pricked the lads pride, just as Tyrion had known it would. Go fetch the board and pieces.
This time I mean to smash you.
They played on deck, sitting cross-legged behind the cabin. Young Griff arrayed his army for
attack, with dragon, elephants, and heavy horse up front. A young mans formation, as bold as it is
foolish. He risks all for the quick kill. He let the prince have first move. Haldon stood behind them,
watching the play.
When the prince reached for his dragon, Tyrion cleared his throat. I would not do that if I were
you. It is a mistake to bring your dragon out too soon. He smiled innocently. Your father knew the
dangers of being over-bold.
Did you know my true father?
Well, I saw him twice or thrice, but I was only ten when Robert killed him, and mine own sire
had me hidden underneath a rock. No, I cannot claim I knew Prince Rhaegar. Not as your false father
did. Lord Connington was the princes dearest friend, was he not?
Young Griff pushed a lock of blue hair out of his eyes. They were squires together at Kings
Landing.
A true friend, our Lord Connington. He must be, to remain so fiercely loyal to the grandson of
the king who took his lands and titles and sent him into exile. A pity about that. Elsewise Prince
Rhaegars friend might have been on hand when my father sacked Kings Landing, to save Prince
Rhaegars precious little son from getting his royal brains dashed out against a wall.
The lad flushed. That was not me. I told you. That was some tanners son from Pisswater Bend
whose mother died birthing him. His father sold him to Lord Varys for a jug of Arbor gold. He had other

sons but had never tasted Arbor gold. Varys gave the Pisswater boy to my lady mother and carried me
away.
Aye. Tyrion moved his elephants. And when the pisswater prince was safely dead, the
eunuch smuggled you across the narrow sea to his fat friend the cheesemonger, who hid you on a
poleboat and found an exile lord willing to call himself your father. It does make for a splendid story, and
the singers will make much of your escape once you take the Iron Throne  assuming that our fair
Daenerys takes you for her consort.
She will. She must.
Must? Tyrion made a tsking sound. That is not a word queens like to hear. You are her
perfect prince, agreed, bright and bold and comely as any maid could wish. Daenerys Targaryen is no
maid, however. She is the widow of a Dothraki khal, a mother of dragons and sacker of cities, Aegon the
Conqueror with teats. She may not prove as willing as you wish.
Shell be willing. Prince Aegon sounded shocked. It was plain that he had never before
considered the possibility that his bride-to-be might refuse him. You dont know her. He picked up his
heavy horse and put it down with a thump.
The dwarf shrugged. I know that she spent her childhood in exile, impoverished, living on
dreams and schemes, running from one city to the next, always fearful, never safe, friendless but for a
brother who was by all accounts half-mad  a brother who sold her maidenhood to the Dothraki for the
promise of an army. I know that somewhere out upon the grass her dragons hatched, and so did she. I
know she is proud. How not? What else was left her but pride? I know she is strong. How not? The
Dothraki despise weakness. If Daenerys had been weak, she would have perished with Viserys. I know
she is fierce. Astapor, Yunkai, and Meereen are proof enough of that. She has crossed the grasslands
and the red waste, survived assassins and conspiracies and fell sorceries, grieved for a brother and a
husband and a son, trod the cities of the slavers to dust beneath her dainty sandaled feet. Now, how do
you suppose this queen will react when you turn up with your begging bowl in hand and say, Good
morrow to you, Auntie. I am your nephew, Aegon, returned from the dead. Ive been hiding on a
poleboat all my life, but now Ive washed the blue dye from my hair and Id like a dragon, please  and
oh, did I mention, my claim to the Iron Throne is stronger than your own? 
Aegons mouth twisted in fury. I will not come to my aunt a beggar. I will come to her a
kinsman, with an army.
A small army. There, thats made him good and angry. The dwarf could not help but think of
Joffrey. I have a gift for angering princes. Queen Daenerys has a large one, and no thanks to you.
Tyrion moved his crossbows.
Say what you want. She will be my bride, Lord Connington will see to it. I trust him as much as if
he were my own blood.

Perhaps you should be the fool instead of me. Trust no one, my prince. Not your chainless
maester, not your false father, not the gallant Duck nor the lovely Lemore nor these other fine friends
who grew you from a bean. Above all, trust not the cheesemonger, nor the Spider, nor this little dragon
queen you mean to marry. All that mistrust will sour your stomach and keep you awake by night, tis
true, but better that than the long sleep that does not end. The dwarf pushed his black dragon across a
range of mountains. But what do I know? Your false father is a great lord, and I am just some twisted
little monkey man. Still, Id do things differently.
That got the boys attention. How differently?
If I were you? I would go west instead of east. Land in Dorne and raise my banners. The Seven
Kingdoms will never be more ripe for conquest than they are right now. A boy king sits the Iron Throne.
The north is in chaos, the riverlands a devastation, a rebel holds Storms End and Dragonstone. When
winter comes, the realm will starve. And who remains to deal with all of this, who rules the little king
who rules the Seven Kingdoms? Why, my own sweet sister. There is no one else. My brother, Jaime,
thirsts for battle, not for power. Hes run from every chance hes had to rule. My uncle Kevan would
make a passably good regent if someone pressed the duty on him, but he will never reach for it. The
gods shaped him to be a follower, not a leader. Well, the gods and my lord father. Mace Tyrell would
grasp the sceptre gladly, but mine own kin are not like to step aside and give it to him. And everyone
hates Stannis. Who does that leave? Why, only Cersei.
Westeros is torn and bleeding, and I do not doubt that even now my sweet sister is binding up
the wounds  with salt. Cersei is as gentle as King Maegor, as selfless as Aegon the Unworthy, as wise as
Mad Aerys. She never forgets a slight, real or imagined. She takes caution for cowardice and dissent for
defiance. And she is greedy. Greedy for power, for honor, for love. Tommens rule is bolstered by all of
the alliances that my lord father built so carefully, but soon enough she will destroy them, every one.
Land and raise your banners, and men will flock to your cause. Lords great and small, and smallfolk too.
But do not wait too long, my prince. The moment will not last. The tide that lifts you now will soon
recede. Be certain you reach Westeros before my sister falls and someone more competent takes her
place.
But, Prince Aegon said, without Daenerys and her dragons, how could we hope to win?
You do not need to win, Tyrion told him. All you need to do is raise your banners, rally your
supporters, and hold, until Daenerys arrives to join her strength to yours.
You said she might not have me.
Perhaps I overstated. She may take pity on you when you come begging for her hand. The
dwarf shrugged. Do you want to wager your throne upon a womans whim? Go to Westeros, though 
ah, then you are a rebel, not a beggar. Bold, reckless, a true scion of House Targaryen, walking in the
footsteps of Aegon the Conqueror. A dragon.

I told you, I know our little queen. Let her hear that her brother Rhaegars murdered son is still
alive, that this brave boy has raised the dragon standard of her forebears in Westeros once more, that
he is fighting a desperate war to avenge his father and reclaim the Iron Throne for House Targaryen,
hard-pressed on every side  and she will fly to your side as fast as wind and water can carry her. You
are the last of her line, and this Mother of Dragons, this Breaker of Chains, is above all a rescuer. The girl
who drowned the slaver cities in blood rather than leave strangers to their chains can scarcely abandon
her own brothers son in his hour of peril. And when she reaches Westeros, and meets you for the first
time, you will meet as equals, man and woman, not queen and supplicant. How can she help but love
you then, I ask you? Smiling, he seized his dragon, flew it across the board. I hope Your Grace will
pardon me. Your king is trapped. Death in four.
The prince stared at the playing board. My dragon
is too far away to save you. You should have moved her to the center of the battle.
But you said
I lied. Trust no one. And keep your dragon close.
Young Griff jerked to his feet and kicked over the board. Cyvasse pieces flew in all directions,
bouncing and rolling across the deck of the Shy Maid. Pick those up, the boy commanded.
He may well be a Targaryen after all. If it please Your Grace. Tyrion got down on his hands and
knees and began to crawl about the deck, gathering up pieces.
It was close to dusk when Yandry and Ysilla returned to the Shy Maid. A porter trotted at their
heels, pushing a wheelbarrow heaped high with provisions: salt and flour, fresh-churned butter, slabs of
bacon wrapped in linen, sacks of oranges, apples, and pears. Yandry had a wine cask on one shoulder,
while Ysilla had slung a pike over hers. The fish was as large as Tyrion.
When she saw the dwarf standing at the end of the gangplank, Ysilla stopped so suddenly that
Yandry blundered into her, and the pike almost slid off her back into the river. Duck helped her rescue it.
Ysilla glared at Tyrion and made a peculiar stabbing gesture with three of her fingers. A sign to ward off
evil. Let me help you with that fish, he said to Duck.
No, Ysilla snapped. Stay away. Touch no food besides the food you eat yourself.
The dwarf raised both hands. As you command.
Yandry thumped the wine cask down onto the desk. Wheres Griff? he demanded of Haldon.
Asleep.
Then rouse him. We have tidings hed best hear. The queens name is on every tongue in
Selhorys. They say she still sits in Meereen, sore beset. If the talk in the markets can be believed, Old
Volantis will soon join the war against her.

Haldon pursed his lips. The gossip of fishmongers is not to be relied on. Still, I suppose Griff will
want to hear. You know how he is. The Halfmaester went below.
The girl never started for the west. No doubt she had good reasons. Between Meereen and
Volantis lay five hundred leagues of deserts, mountains, swamps, and ruins, plus Mantarys with its
sinister repute. A city of monsters, they say, but if she marches overland, where else is she to turn for
food and water? The sea would be swifter, but if she does not have the ships 
By the time Griff appeared on deck, the pike was spitting and sizzling over the brazier whilst
Ysilla hovered over it with a lemon, squeezing. The sellsword wore his mail and wolfskin cloak, soft
leather gloves, dark woolen breeches. If he was surprised to see Tyrion awake, he gave no sign beyond
his customary scowl. He took Yandry back to the tiller, where they spoke in low voices, too quietly for
the dwarf to hear.
Finally Griff beckoned to Haldon. We need to know the truth of these rumors. Go ashore and
learn what you can. Qavo will know, if you can find him. Try the Riverman and the Painted Turtle. You
know his other places.
Aye. Ill take the dwarf as well. Four ears hear more than two. And you know how Qavo is
about his cyvasse.
As you wish. Be back before the sun comes up. If for any reason youre delayed, make your way
to the Golden Company.
Spoken like a lord. Tyrion kept the thought to himself.
Haldon donned a hooded cloak, and Tyrion shed his homemade motley for something drab and
grey. Griff allowed them each a purse of silver from Illyrios chests. To loosen tongues.
Dusk was giving way to darkness as they made their way along the riverfront. Some of the ships
they passed appeared deserted, their gangplanks drawn up. Others crawled with armed men who eyed
them with suspicion. Under the town walls, parchment lanterns had been lit above the stalls, throwing
pools of colored light upon the cobbled path. Tyrion watched as Haldons face turned green, then red,
then purple. Under the cacophony of foreign tongues, he heard queer music playing from somewhere
up ahead, a thin high fluting accompanied by drums. A dog was barking too, behind them.
And the whores were out. River or sea, a port was a port, and wherever you found sailors, youd
find whores. Is that what my father meant? Is that where whores go, to the sea?
The whores of Lannisport and Kings Landing were free women. Their sisters of Selhorys were
slaves, their bondage indicated by the tears tattooed beneath their right eyes. Old as sin and twice as
ugly, the lot of them. It was almost enough to put a man off whoring. Tyrion felt their eyes upon them as
he waddled by, and heard them whispering to one another and giggling behind their hands. You would
think they had never seen a dwarf before.

A squad of Volantene spearmen stood guard at the river gate. Torch-light gleamed off the steel
claws that jutted from their gauntlets. Their helms were tigers masks, the faces beneath marked by
green stripes tattooed across both cheeks. The slave soldiers of Volantis were fiercely proud of their
tiger stripes, Tyrion knew. Do they yearn for freedom? he wondered. What would they do if this child
queen bestowed it on them? What are they, if not tigers? What am I, if not a lion?
One of the tigers spied the dwarf and said something that made the others laugh. As they
reached the gate, he pulled off his clawed gauntlet and the sweaty glove beneath, locked one arm
around the dwarfs neck, and roughly rubbed his head. Tyrion was too startled to resist. It was all over in
a heartbeat. Was there some reason for that? he demanded of the Halfmaester.
He says that it is good luck to rub the head of a dwarf, Haldon said after an exchange with the
guard in his own tongue.
Tyrion forced himself to smile at the man. Tell him that it is even better luck to suck on a
dwarfs cock.
Best not. Tigers have been known to have sharp teeth.
A different guard motioned them through the gate, waving a torch at them impatiently. Haldon
Halfmaester led the way into Selhorys proper, with Tyrion waddling warily at his heels.
A great square opened up before them. Even at this hour, it was crowded and noisy and ablaze
with light. Lanterns swung from iron chains above the doors of inns and pleasure houses, but within the
gates, they were made of colored glass, not parchment. To their right a nightfire burned outside a
temple of red stone. A priest in scarlet robes stood on the temple balcony, haranguing the small crowd
that had gathered around the flames. Elsewhere, travelers sat playing cyvasse in front of an inn, drunken
soldiers wandered in and out of what was obviously a brothel, a woman beat a mule outside a stable. A
two-wheeled cart went rumbling past them, pulled by a white dwarf elephant. This is another world,
thought Tyrion, but not so different from the world I know.
The square was dominated by a white marble statue of a headless man in impossibly ornate
armor, astride a warhorse similarly arrayed. Who might that be? wondered Tyrion.
Triarch Horonno. A Volantene hero from the Century of Blood. He was returned as triarch
every year for forty years, until he wearied of elections and declared himself triarch for life. The
Volantenes were not amused. He was put to death soon after. Tied between two elephants and torn in
half.
His statue seems to lack a head.
He was a tiger. When the elephants came to power, their followers went on a rampage,
knocking the heads from the statues of those they blamed for all the wars and deaths. He shrugged.
That was another age. Come, wed best hear what that priest is going on about. I swear I heard the
name Daenerys.

Across the square they joined the growing throng outside the red temple. With the locals
towering above him on every hand, the little man found it hard to see much beyond their arses. He
could hear most every word the priest was saying, but that was not to say he understood them. Do you
understand what he is saying? he asked Haldon in the Common Tongue.
I would if I did not have a dwarf piping in my ear.
I do not pipe. Tyrion crossed his arms and looked behind him, studying the faces of the men
and women who had stopped to listen. Everywhere he turned, he saw tattoos. Slaves. Four of every five
of them are slaves.
The priest is calling on the Volantenes to go to war, the Halfmaester told him, but on the side
of right, as soldiers of the Lord of Light, Rhllor who made the sun and stars and fights eternally against
the darkness. Nyessos and Malaquo have turned away from the light, he says, their hearts darkened by
the yellow harpies from the east. He says 
Dragons. I understood that word. He said dragons.
Aye. The dragons have come to carry her to glory.
Her. Daenerys?
Haldon nodded. Benerro has sent forth the word from Volantis. Her coming is the fulfillment of
an ancient prophecy. From smoke and salt was she born to make the world anew. She is Azor Ahai
returned  and her triumph over darkness will bring a summer that will never end  death itself will
bend its knee, and all those who die fighting in her cause shall be reborn 
Do I have to be reborn in this same body? asked Tyrion. The crowd was growing thicker. He
could feel them pressing in around them. Who is Benerro?
Haldon raised an eyebrow. High Priest of the red temple in Volantis. Flame of Truth, Light of
Wisdom, First Servant of the Lord of Light, Slave of Rhllor.
The only red priest Tyrion had ever known was Thoros of Myr, the portly, genial, wine-stained
roisterer who had loitered about Roberts court swilling the kings finest vintages and setting his sword
on fire for mles. Give me priests who are fat and corrupt and cynical, he told Haldon, the sort who
like to sit on soft satin cushions, nibble sweetmeats, and diddle little boys. Its the ones who believe in
gods who make the trouble.
It may be that we can use this trouble to our advantage. I know where we may find answers.
Haldon led them past the headless hero to where a big stone inn fronted on the square. The ridged shell
of some immense turtle hung above its door, painted in garish colors. Inside a hundred dim red candles
burned like distant stars. The air was fragrant with the smell of roasted meat and spices, and a slave girl
with a turtle on one cheek was pouring pale green wine.
Haldon paused in the doorway. There. Those two.

In the alcove two men sat over a carved stone cyvasse table, squinting at their pieces by the
light of a red candle. One was gaunt and sallow, with thinning black hair and a blade of a nose. The other
was wide of shoulder and round of belly, with corkscrew ringlets tumbling past his collar. Neither
deigned to look up from their game until Haldon drew up a chair between them and said, My dwarf
plays better cyvasse than both of you combined.
The bigger man raised his eyes to gaze at the intruders in distaste and said something in the
tongue of Old Volantis, too fast for Tyrion to hope to follow. The thinner one leaned back in his chair. Is
he for sale? he asked in the Common Tongue of Westeros. The triarchs grotesquerie is in need of a
cyvasse-playing dwarf.
Yollo is no slave.
What a pity. The thin man shifted an onyx elephant.
Across the cyvasse table, the man behind the alabaster army pursed his lips in disapproval. He
moved his heavy horse.
A blunder, said Tyrion. He had as well play his part. Just so, the thin man said. He answered
with his own heavy horse. A flurry of quick moves followed, until finally the thin man smiled and said,
Death, my friend.
The big man glowered at the board, then rose and growled something in his own tongue. His
opponent laughed. Come now. The dwarf does not stink as bad as that. He beckoned Tyrion toward
the empty chair. Up with you, little man. Put your silver on the table, and we will see how well you play
the game.
Which game? Tyrion might have asked. He climbed onto the chair. I play better with a full belly
and a cup of wine to hand. The thin man turned obligingly and called for the slave girl to fetch them
food and drink.
Haldon said, The noble Qavo Nogarys is the customs officer here in Selhorys. I have never once
defeated him at cyvasse.
Tyrion understood. Perhaps I will be more fortunate. He opened his purse and stacked silver
coins beside the board, one atop another until finally Qavo smiled.
As each of them was setting up his pieces behind the cyvasse screen, Haldon said, What news
from downriver? Will it be war?
Qavo shrugged. The Yunkaii would have it so. They style themselves the Wise Masters. Of their
wisdom I cannot speak, but they do not lack for cunning. Their envoy came to us with chests of gold and
gems and two hundred slaves, nubile girls and smooth-skinned boys trained in the way of the seven
sighs. I am told his feasts are memorable and his bribes lavish.
The Yunkishmen have bought your triarchs?

Only Nyessos. Qavo removed the screen and studied the placement of Tyrions army.
Malaquo may be old and toothless, but he is a tiger still, and Doniphos will not be returned as triarch.
The city thirsts for war.
Why? wondered Tyrion. Meereen is long leagues across the sea. How has this sweet child
queen offended Old Volantis?
Sweet? Qavo laughed. If even half the stories coming back from Slavers Bay are true, this
child is a monster. They say that she is blood-thirsty, that those who speak against her are impaled on
spikes to die lingering deaths. They say she is a sorceress who feeds her dragons on the flesh of newborn
babes, an oathbreaker who mocks the gods, breaks truces, threatens envoys, and turns on those who
have served her loyally. They say her lust cannot be sated, that she mates with men, women, eunuchs,
even dogs and children, and woe betide the lover who fails to satisfy her. She gives her body to men to
take their souls in thrall.
Oh, good, thought Tyrion. If she gives her body to me, she is welcome to my soul, small and
stunted though it is.
They say, said Haldon. By they, you mean the slavers, the exiles she drove from Astapor and
Meereen. Mere calumnies.
The best calumnies are spiced with truth, suggested Qavo, but the girls true sin cannot be
denied. This arrogant child has taken it upon herself to smash the slave trade, but that traffic was never
confined to Slavers Bay. It was part of the sea of trade that spanned the world, and the dragon queen
has clouded the water. Behind the Black Wall, lords of ancient blood sleep poorly, listening as their
kitchen slaves sharpen their long knives. Slaves grow our food, clean our streets, teach our young. They
guard our walls, row our galleys, fight our battles. And now when they look east, they see this young
queen shining from afar, this breaker of chains. The Old Blood cannot suffer that. Poor men hate her
too. Even the vilest beggar stands higher than a slave. This dragon queen would rob him of that
consolation.
Tyrion advanced his spearmen. Qavo replied with his light horse. Tyrion moved his
crossbowmen up a square and said, The red priest outside seemed to think Volantis should fight for
this silver queen, not against her.
The red priests would be wise to hold their tongues, said Qavo Nogarys. Already there has
been fighting between their followers and those who worship other gods. Benerros rantings will only
serve to bring a savage wrath down upon his head.
What rantings? the dwarf asked, toying with his rabble.
The Volantene waved a hand. In Volantis, thousands of slaves and freedmen crowd the temple
plaza every night to hear Benerro shriek of bleeding stars and a sword of fire that will cleanse the world.
He has been preaching that Volantis will surely burn if the triarchs take up arms against the silver
queen.

Thats a prophecy even I could make. Ah, supper.
Supper was a plate of roasted goat served on a bed of sliced onions. The meat was spiced and
fragrant, charred outside and red and juicy within. Tyrion plucked at a piece. It was so hot it burned his
fingers, but so good he could not help but reach for another chunk. He washed it down with the pale
green Volantene liquor, the closest thing hed had to wine for ages. Very good, he said, plucking up his
dragon. The most powerful piece in the game, he announced, as he removed one of Qavos elephants.
And Daenerys Targaryen has three, its said.
Three, Qavo allowed, against thrice three thousand enemies. Grazdan mo Eraz was not the
only envoy sent out from the Yellow City. When the Wise Masters move against Meereen, the legions of
New Ghis will fight beside them. Tolosi. Elyrians. Even the Dothraki.
You have Dothraki outside your own gates, Haldon said. Khal Pono. Qavo waved a pale hand
in dismissal. The horselords come, we give them gifts, the horselords go. He moved his catapult again,
closed his hand around Tyrions alabaster dragon, removed it from the board.
The rest was slaughter, though the dwarf held on another dozen moves. The time has come for
bitter tears, Qavo said at last, scooping up the pile of silver. Another game?
No need, said Haldon. My dwarf has had his lesson in humility. I think it is best we get back to
our boat.
Outside in the square, the nightfire was still burning, but the priest was gone and the crowd was
long dispersed. The glow of candles glimmered from the windows of the brothel. From inside came the
sound of womens laughter. The night is still young, said Tyrion. Qavo may not have told us
everything. And whores hear much and more from the men they service.
Do you need a woman so badly, Yollo?
A man grows weary of having no lovers but his fingers. Selhorys may be where whores go.
Tysha might be in there even now, with tears tattooed upon her cheek. I almost drowned. A man needs
a woman after that. Besides, I need to make sure my prick hasnt turned to stone.
The Halfmaester laughed. I will wait for you in the tavern by the gate. Do not be too long about
your business.
Oh, have no fear on that count. Most women prefer to be done with me as quickly as they
can.
The brothel was a modest one compared to those the dwarf had been wont to frequent in
Lannisport and Kings Landing. The proprietor did not seem to speak any tongue but that of Volantis, but
he understood the clank of silver well enough and led Tyrion through an archway into a long room that
smelled of incense, where four bored slave girls were lounging about in various states of undress. Two
had seen at least forty namedays come and go, he guessed; the youngest was perhaps fifteen or sixteen.

None was as hideous as the whores hed seen working the docks, though they fell well short of beauty.
One was plainly pregnant. Another was just fat, and sported iron rings in both her nipples. All four had
tears tattooed beneath one eye.
Do you have a girl who speaks the tongue of Westeros? asked Tyrion. The proprietor squinted,
uncomprehending, so he repeated the question in High Valyrian. This time the man seemed to grasp a
word or three and replied in Volantene. Sunset girl was all the dwarf could get out of his answer. He
took that to mean a girl from the Sunset Kingdoms.
There was only one such in the house, and she was not Tysha. She had freckled cheeks and tight
red curls upon her head, which gave promise of freckled breasts and red hair between her legs. Shell
do, said Tyrion, and Ill have a flagon too. Red wine with red flesh. The whore was looking at his
noseless face with revulsion in her eyes. Do I offend you, sweet-ling? I am an offensive creature, as my
father would be glad to tell you if he were not dead and rotting.
Though she did look Westerosi, the girl spoke not a word of the Common Tongue. Perhaps she
was captured by some slaver as a child. Her bedchamber was small, but there was a Myrish carpet on
the floor and a mattress stuffed with feathers in place of straw. I have seen worse. Will you give me
your name? he asked, as he took a cup of wine from her. No? The wine was strong and sour and
required no translation. I suppose I shall settle for your cunt. He wiped his mouth with the back of his
hand. Have you ever bedded a monster before? Nows as good a time as any. Out of your clothes and
onto your back, if it please you. Or not.
She looked at him uncomprehending, until he took the flagon from her hands and lifted her
skirts up over her head. After that she understood what was required of her, though she did not prove
the liveliest of partners. Tyrion had been so long without a woman that he spent himself inside her on
the third thrust.
He rolled off feeling more ashamed than sated. This was a mistake. What a wretched creature
Ive become. Do you know a woman by the name of Tysha? he asked, as he watched his seed dribble
out of her onto the bed. The whore did not respond. Do you know where whores go? She did not
answer that one either. Her back was crisscrossed by ridges of scar tissue. This girl is as good as dead. I
have just fucked a corpse. Even her eyes looked dead. She does not even have the strength to loathe me.
He needed wine. A lot of wine. He seized the flagon with both hands and raised it to his lips. The
wine ran red. Down his throat, down his chin. It dripped from his beard and soaked the feather bed. In
the candlelight it looked as dark as the wine that had poisoned Joffrey. When he was done he tossed the
empty flagon aside and half-rolled and half-staggered to the floor, groping for a chamber pot. There was
none to be found. His stomach heaved, and he found himself on his knees, retching on the carpet, that
wonderful thick Myrish carpet, as comforting as lies.
The whore cried out in distress. They will blame her for this, he realized, ashamed. Cut off my
head and take it to Kings Landing, Tyrion urged her. My sister will make a lady of you, and no one will

ever whip you again. She did not understand that either, so he shoved her legs apart, crawled between
them, and took her once more. That much she could comprehend, at least.
Afterward the wine was done and so was he, so he wadded up the girls clothing and tossed it at
the door. She took the hint and fled, leaving him alone in the darkness, sinking deeper into his feather
bed. I am stinking drunk. He dare not close his eyes, for fear of sleep. Beyond the veil of dream, the
Sorrows were waiting for him. Stone steps ascending endlessly, steep and slick and treacherous, and
somewhere at the top, the Shrouded Lord. I do not want to meet the Shrouded Lord. Tyrion fumbled
back into his clothes again and groped his way to the stair. Griff will flay me. Well, why not? If ever a
dwarf deserved a skinning, Im him.
Halfway down the steps, he lost his footing. Somehow he managed to break his tumble with his
hands and turn it into a clumsy thumping cartwheel. The whores in the room below looked up in
astonishment when he landed at the foot of the steps. Tyrion rolled onto his feet and gave them a bow.
I am more agile when Im drunk. He turned to the proprietor. I fear I ruined your carpet. The girls not
to blame. Let me pay. He pulled out a fistful of coins and tossed them at the man.
Imp, a deep voice said, behind him.
In the corner of the room, a man sat in a pool of shadow, with a whore squirming on his lap. I
never saw that girl. If I had, I would have taken her upstairs instead of freckles. She was younger than
the others, slim and pretty, with long silvery hair. Lyseni, at a guess  but the man whose lap she filled
was from the Seven Kingdoms. Burly and broad-shouldered, forty if he was a day, and maybe older. Half
his head was bald, but coarse stubble covered his cheeks and chin, and hair grew thickly down his arms,
sprouting even from his knuckles.
Tyrion did not like the look of him. He liked the big black bear on his surcoat even less. Wool.
Hes wearing wool, in this heat. Who else but a knight would be so fucking mad? How pleasant to hear
the Common Tongue so far from home, he made himself say, but I fear you have mistaken me. My
name is Hugor Hill. May I buy you a cup of wine, my friend?
Ive drunk enough. The knight shoved his whore aside and got to his feet. His sword belt hung
on a peg beside him. He took it down and drew his blade. Steel whispered against leather. The whores
were watching avidly, candlelight shining in their eyes. The proprietor had vanished. Youre mine,
Hugor.
Tyrion could no more outrun him than outfight him. Drunk as he was, he could not even hope to
outwit him. He spread his hands. And what do you mean to do with me?
Deliver you, the knight said, to the queen.
DAENERYS

Galazza Galare arrived at the Great Pyramid attended by a dozen White Graces, girls of noble
birth who were still too young to have served their year in the temples pleasure gardens. They made for
a pretty portrait, the proud old woman all in green surrounded by the little girls robed and veiled in
white, armored in their innocence.
The queen welcomed them warmly, then summoned Missandei to see that the girls were fed
and entertained whilst she shared a private supper with the Green Grace.
Her cooks had prepared them a magnificent meal of honeyed lamb, fragrant with crushed mint
and served with the small green figs she liked so much. Two of Danys favorite hostages served the food
and kept the cups filleda doe-eyed little girl called Qezza and a skinny boy named Grazhar. They were
brother and sister, and cousins of the Green Grace, who greeted them with kisses when she swept in,
and asked them if they had been good.
They are very sweet, the both of them, Dany assured her. Qezza sings for me sometimes. She
has a lovely voice. And Ser Barristan has been instructing Grazhar and the other boys in the ways of
western chivalry.
They are of my blood, the Green Grace said, as Qezza filled her cup with a dark red wine. It is
good to know they have pleased Your Radiance. I hope I may do likewise. The old womans hair was
white and her skin was parchment thin, but the years had not dimmed her eyes. They were as green as
her robes; sad eyes, full of wisdom. If you will forgive my saying so, Your Radiance looks  weary. Are
you sleeping?
It was all Dany could do not to laugh. Not well. Last night three Qartheen galleys sailed up the
Skahazadhan under the cover of darkness. The Mothers Men loosed flights of fire arrows at their sails
and flung pots of burning pitch onto their decks, but the galleys slipped by quickly and suffered no
lasting harm. The Qartheen mean to close the river to us, as they have closed the bay. And they are no
longer alone. Three galleys from New Ghis have joined them, and a carrack out of Tolos. The Tolosi had
replied to her request for an alliance by proclaiming her a whore and demanding that she return
Meereen to its Great Masters. Even that was preferable to the answer of Mantarys, which came by way
of caravan in a cedar chest. Inside she had found the heads of her three envoys, pickled. Perhaps your
gods can help us. Ask them to send a gale and sweep the galleys from the bay.
I shall pray and make sacrifice. Mayhaps the gods of Ghis will hear me. Galazza Galare sipped
her wine, but her eyes did not leave Dany. Storms rage within the walls as well as without. More
freedmen died last night, or so I have been told.
Three. Saying it left a bitter taste in her mouth. The cowards broke in on some weavers,
freedwomen who had done no harm to anyone. All they did was make beautiful things. I have a tapestry
they gave me hanging over my bed. The Sons of the Harpy broke their loom and raped them before
slitting their throats.

This we have heard. And yet Your Radiance has found the courage to answer butchery with
mercy. You have not harmed any of the noble children you hold as hostage.
Not as yet, no. Dany had grown fond of her young charges. Some were shy and some were
bold, some sweet and some sullen, but all were innocent. If I kill my cupbearers, who will pour my wine
and serve my supper? she said, trying to make light of it.
The priestess did not smile. The Shavepate would feed them to your dragons, it is said. A life for
a life. For every Brazen Beast cut down, he would have a child die.
Dany pushed her food about her plate. She dare not glance over to where Grazhar and Qezza
stood, for fear that she might cry. The Shavepate has a harder heart than mine. They had fought about
the hostages half a dozen times. The Sons of the Harpy are laughing in their pyramids, Skahaz said, just
this morning. What good are hostages if you will not take their heads? In his eyes, she was only a weak
woman. Hazzea was enough. What good is peace if it must be purchased with the blood of little
children? These murders are not their doing, Dany told the Green Grace, feebly. I am no butcher
queen.
And for that Meereen gives thanks, said Galazza Galare. We have heard that the Butcher King
of Astapor is dead.
Slain by his own soldiers when he commanded them to march out and attack the Yunkaii. The
words were bitter in her mouth. He was hardly cold before another took his place, calling himself Cleon
the Second. That one lasted eight days before his throat was opened. Then his killer claimed the crown.
So did the first Cleons concubine. King Cutthroat and Queen Whore, the Astapori call them. Their
followers are fighting battles in the streets, while the Yunkaii and their sellswords wait outside the
walls.
These are grievous times. Your Radiance, might I presume to offer you my counsel?
You know how much I value your wisdom.
Then heed me now and marry.
Ah. Dany had been expecting this. Oftimes I have heard you say that you are only a young
girl. To look at you, you still seem half a child, too young and frail to face such trials by yourself. You
need a king beside you to help you bear these burdens.
Dany speared a chunk of lamb, took a bite from it, chewed slowly. Tell me, can this king puff his
cheeks up and blow Xaros galleys back to Qarth? Can he clap his hands and break the siege of Astapor?
Can he put food in the bellies of my children and bring peace back to my streets?
Can you? the Green Grace asked. A king is not a god, but there is still much that a strong man
might do. When my people look at you, they see a conqueror from across the seas, come to murder us

and make slaves of our children. A king could change that. A highborn king of pure Ghiscari blood could
reconcile the city to your rule. Elsewise, I fear, your reign must end as it began, in blood and fire.
Dany pushed her food about her plate. And who would the gods of Ghis have me take as my
king and consort?
Hizdahr zo Loraq, Galazza Galare said firmly.
Dany did not trouble to feign surprise. Why Hizdahr? Skahaz is noble born as well.
Skahaz is Kandaq, Hizdahr Loraq. Your Radiance will forgive me, but only one who is not herself
Ghiscari would not understand the difference. Oft have I heard that yours is the blood of Aegon the
Conqueror, Jaehaerys the Wise, and Daeron the Dragon. The noble Hizdahr is of the blood of Mazdhan
the Magnificent, Hazrak the Handsome, and Zharaq the Liberator.
His forebears are as dead as mine. Will Hizdahr raise their shades to defend Meereen against
its enemies? I need a man with ships and swords. You offer me ancestors.
We are an old people. Ancestors are important to us. Wed Hizdahr zo Loraq and make a son
with him, a son whose father is the harpy, whose mother is the dragon. In him the prophecies shall be
fulfilled, and your enemies will melt away like snow.
He shall be the stallion that mounts the world. Dany knew how it went with prophecies. They
were made of words, and words were wind. There would be no son for Loraq, no heir to unite dragon
and harpy. When the sun rises in the west and sets in the east, when the seas go dry and mountains blow
in the wind like leaves. Only then would her womb quicken once again 
 but Daenerys Targaryen had other children, tens of thousands who had hailed her as their
mother when she broke their chains. She thought of Stalwart Shield, of Missandeis brother, of the
woman Rylona Rhee, who had played the harp so beautifully. No marriage would ever bring them back
to life, but if a husband could help end the slaughter, then she owed it to her dead to marry.
If I wed Hizdahr, will that turn Skahaz against me? She trusted Skahaz more than she trusted
Hizdahr, but the Shavepate would be a disaster as a king. He was too quick to anger, too slow to forgive.
She saw no gain in wedding a man as hated as herself. Hizdahr was well respected, so far as she could
see. What does my prospective husband think of this? she asked the Green Grace. What does he think
of me?
Your Grace need only ask him. The noble Hizdahr awaits below. Send down to him if that is
your pleasure.
You presume too much, priestess, the queen thought, but she swallowed her anger and made
herself smile. Why not? She sent for Ser Barristan and told the old knight to bring Hizdahr to her. It is
a long climb. Have the Unsullied help him up.

By the time the nobleman had made the ascent, the Green Grace had finished eating. If it
please Your Magnificence, I will take my leave. You and the noble Hizdahr will have many things to
discuss, I do not doubt. The old woman dabbed a smear of honey off her lips, gave Qezza and Grazhar
each a parting kiss upon the brow, and fastened her silken veil across her face. I shall return to the
Temple of the Graces and pray for the gods to show my queen the course of wisdom.
When she was gone, Dany let Qezza fill her cup again, dismissed the children, and commanded
that Hizdahr zo Loraq be admitted to her presence. And if he dares say one word about his precious
fighting pits, I may have him thrown off the terrace.
Hizdahr wore a plain green robe beneath a quilted vest. He bowed low when he entered, his
face solemn. Have you no smile for me? Dany asked him. Am I as fearful as all that?
I always grow solemn in the presence of such beauty.
It was a good start. Drink with me. Dany filled his cup herself. You know why you are here.
The Green Grace seems to feel that if I take you for my husband, all my woes will vanish.
I would never make so bold a claim. Men are born to strive and suffer. Our woes only vanish
when we die. I can be of help to you, however. I have gold and friends and influence, and the blood of
Old Ghis flows in my veins. Though I have never wed, I have two natural children, a boy and a girl, so I
can give you heirs. I can reconcile the city to your rule and put an end to this nightly slaughter in the
streets.
Can you? Dany studied his eyes. Why should the Sons of the Harpy lay down their knives for
you? Are you one of them?
No.
Would you tell me if you were?
He laughed. No.
The Shavepate has ways of finding the truth.
I do not doubt that Skahaz would soon have me confessing. A day with him, and I will be one of
the Harpys Sons. Two days, and I will be the Harpy. Three, and it will turn out I slew your father too,
back in the Sunset Kingdoms when I was yet a boy. Then he will impale me on a stake and you can watch
me die  but afterward the killings will go on. Hizdahr leaned closer. Or you can marry me and let me
try to stop them.
Why would you want to help me? For the crown?
A crown would suit me well, I will not deny that. It is more than that, however. Is it so strange
that I would want to protect my own people, as you protect your freedmen? Meereen cannot endure
another war, Your Radiance.

That was a good answer, and an honest one. I have never wanted war. I defeated the Yunkaii
once and spared their city when I might have sacked it. I refused to join King Cleon when he marched
against them. Even now, with Astapor besieged, I stay my hand. And Qarth  I have never done the
Qartheen any harm 
Not by intent, no, but Qarth is a city of merchants, and they love the clink of silver coins, the
gleam of yellow gold. When you smashed the slave trade, the blow was felt from Westeros to Asshai.
Qarth depends upon its slaves. So too Tolos, New Ghis, Lys, Tyrosh, Volantis  the list is long, my
queen.
Let them come. In me they shall find a sterner foe than Cleon. I would sooner perish fighting
than return my children to bondage.
There may be another choice. The Yunkaii can be persuaded to allow all your freedmen to
remain free, I believe, if Your Worship will agree that the Yellow City may trade and train slaves
unmolested from this day forth. No more blood need flow.
Save for the blood of those slaves that the Yunkaii will trade and train, Dany said, but she
recognized the truth in his words even so. It may be that is the best end we can hope for. You have not
said you love me.
I will, if it would please Your Radiance.
That is not the answer of a man in love.
What is love? Desire? No man with all his parts could ever look on you and not desire you,
Daenerys. That is not why I would marry you, however. Before you came Meereen was dying. Our rulers
were old men with withered cocks and crones whose puckered cunts were dry as dust. They sat atop
their pyramids sipping apricot wine and talking of the glories of the Old Empire whilst the centuries
slipped by and the very bricks of the city crumbled all around them. Custom and caution had an iron grip
upon us till you awakened us with fire and blood. A new time has come, and new things are possible.
Marry me.
He is not hard to look at, Dany told herself, and he has a kings tongue. Kiss me, she
commanded.
He took her hand again, and kissed her fingers. Not that way. Kiss me as if I were your wife.
Hizdahr took her by the shoulders as tenderly as if she were a baby bird. Leaning forward, he
pressed his lips to hers. His kiss was light and dry and quick. Dany felt no stirrings.
Shall I  kiss you again? he asked when it was over. No. On her terrace, in her bathing pool,
the little fish would nibble at her legs as she soaked. Even they kissed with more fervor than Hizdahr zo
Loraq. I do not love you.
Hizdahr shrugged. That may come, in time. It has been known to happen that way.

Not with us, she thought. Not whilst Daario is so close. Its him I want, not you. One day I will
want to return to Westeros, to claim the Seven Kingdoms that were my fathers.
One day all men must die, but it serves no good to dwell on death. I prefer to take each day as
it comes.
Dany folded her hands together. Words are wind, even words like love and peace. I put more
trust in deeds. In my Seven Kingdoms, knights go on quests to prove themselves worthy of the maiden
that they love. They seek for magic swords, for chests of gold, for crowns stolen from a dragons hoard.
Hizdahr arched an eyebrow. The only dragons that I know are yours, and magic swords are
even scarcer. I will gladly bring you rings and crowns and chests of gold if that is your desire.
Peace is my desire. You say that you can help me end the nightly slaughter in my streets. I say
do it. Put an end to this shadow war, my lord. That is your quest. Give me ninety days and ninety nights
without a murder, and I will know that you are worthy of a throne. Can you do that?
Hizdahr looked thoughtful. Ninety days and ninety nights without a corpse, and on the
ninety-first we wed?
Perhaps, said Dany, with a coy look. Though young girls have been known to be fickle. I may
still want a magic sword.
Hizdahr laughed. Then you shall have that too, Radiance. Your wish is my command. Best tell
your seneschal to begin making preparations for our wedding.
Nothing would please the noble Reznak more. If Meereen knew that a wedding was in the
offing, that alone might buy her a few nights respite, even if Hizdahrs efforts came to naught. The
Shavepate will not be happy with me, but Reznak mo Reznak will dance for joy. Dany did not know which
of those concerned her more. She needed Skahaz and the Brazen Beasts, and she had come to mistrust
all of Reznaks counsel. Beware the perfumed seneschal. Has Reznak made common cause with Hizdahr
and the Green Grace and set some trap to snare me?
No sooner had Hizdahr zo Loraq taken his leave of her than Ser Barristan appeared behind her in
his long white cloak. Years of service in the Kingsguard had taught the white knight how to remain
unobtrusive when she was entertaining, but he was never far. He knows, she saw at once, and he
disapproves. The lines around his mouth had deepened. So, she said to him, it seems that I may wed
again. Are you happy for me, ser?
If that is your command, Your Grace.
Hizdahr is not the husband you would have chosen for me.
It is not my place to choose your husband.

It is not, she agreed, but it is important to me that you should understand. My people are
bleeding. Dying. A queen belongs not to herself, but to the realm. Marriage or carnage, those are my
choices. A wedding or a war.
Your Grace, may I speak frankly?
Always.
There is a third choice.
Westeros?
He nodded. I am sworn to serve Your Grace, and to keep you safe from harm wherever you
may go. My place is by your side, whether here or in Kings Landing  but your place is back in Westeros,
upon the Iron Throne that was your fathers. The Seven Kingdoms will never accept Hizdahr zo Loraq as
king.
No more than Meereen will accept Daenerys Targaryen as queen. The Green Grace has the
right of that. I need a king beside me, a king of old Ghiscari blood. Elsewise they will always see me as
the uncouth barbarian who smashed through their gates, impaled their kin on spikes, and stole their
wealth.
In Westeros you will be the lost child who returns to gladden her fathers heart. Your people
will cheer when you ride by, and all good men will love you.
Westeros is far away.
Lingering here will never bring it any closer. The sooner we take our leave of this place
I know. I do. Dany did not know how to make him see. She wanted Westeros as much as he
did, but first she must heal Meereen. Ninety days is a long time. Hizdahr may fail. And if he does, the
trying buys me time. Time to make alliances, to strengthen my defenses, to
And if he does not fail? What will Your Grace do then?
Her duty. The word felt cold upon her tongue. You saw my brother Rhaegar wed. Tell me, did
he wed for love or duty?
The old knight hesitated. Princess Elia was a good woman, Your Grace. She was kind and clever,
with a gentle heart and a sweet wit. I know the prince was very fond of her.
Fond, thought Dany. The word spoke volumes. I could become fond of Hizdahr zo Loraq, in time.
Perhaps.
Ser Barristan went on. I saw your father and your mother wed as well. Forgive me, but there
was no fondness there, and the realm paid dearly for that, my queen.

Why did they wed if they did not love each other?
Your grandsire commanded it. A woods witch had told him that the prince was promised would
be born of their line.
A woods witch? Dany was astonished. She came to court with Jenny of Oldstones. A stunted
thing, grotesque to look upon. A dwarf, most people said, though dear to Lady Jenny, who always
claimed that she was one of the children of the forest.
What became of her?
Summerhall. The word was fraught with doom.
Dany sighed. Leave me now. I am very weary.
As you command. Ser Barristan bowed and turned to go. But at the door, he stopped. Forgive
me. Your Grace has a visitor. Shall I tell him to return upon the morrow?
Who is it?
Naharis. The Stormcrows have returned to the city.
Daario. Her heart gave a flutter in her chest. How long has  when did he  ? She could not
seem to get the words out.
Ser Barristan seemed to understand. Your Grace was with the priestess when he arrived. I
knew you would not want to be disturbed. The captains news can wait until the morrow.
No. How could I ever hope to sleep, knowing that my captain so close? Send him up at once.
And  I will have no more need of you this evening. I shall be safe with Daario. Oh, and send Irri and
Jhiqui, if you would be so good. And Missandei. I need to change, to make myself beautiful.
She said as much to her handmaids when they came. What does Your Grace wish to wear?
asked Missandei.
Starlight and seafoam, Dany thought, a wisp of silk that leaves my left breast bare for Daarios
delight. Oh, and flowers for my hair. When first they met, the captain brought her flowers every day, all
the way from Yunkai to Meereen. Bring the grey linen gown with the pearls on the bodice. Oh, and my
white lions pelt. She always felt safer wrapped in Drogos lionskin.
Daenerys received the captain on her terrace, seated on a carved stone bench beneath a pear
tree. A half-moon floated in the sky above the city, attended by a thousand stars. Daario Naharis
entered swaggering. He swaggers even when he is standing still. The captain wore striped pantaloons
tucked into high boots of purple leather, a white silk shirt, a vest of golden rings. His trident beard was
purple, his flamboyant mustachios gold, his long curls equal parts of both. On one hip he wore a stiletto,
on the other a Dothraki arakh. Bright queen, he said, you have grown more beautiful in my absence.
How is this thing possible?

The queen was accustomed to such praise, yet somehow the compliment meant more coming
from Daario than from the likes of Reznak, Xaro, or Hizdahr. Captain. They tell us you did us good
service in Lhazar. I have missed you so much.
Your captain lives to serve his cruel queen.
Cruel?
Moonlight glimmered in his eyes. He raced ahead of all his men to see her face the sooner, only
to be left languishing whilst she ate lamb and figs with some dried-up old woman.
They never told me you were here, Dany thought, or I might have played the fool and sent for
you at once. I was supping with the Green Grace. It seemed best not to mention Hizdahr. I had urgent
need of her wise counsel.
I have only one urgent need: Daenerys.
Shall I send for food? You must be hungry.
I have not eaten in two days, but now that I am here, it is enough for me to feast upon your
beauty.
My beauty will not fill up your belly. She plucked down a pear and tossed it at him. Eat this.
If my queen commands it. He took a bite of the pear, his gold tooth gleaming. Juice ran down
into his purple beard.
The girl in her wanted to kiss him so much it hurt. His kisses would be hard and cruel, she told
herself, and he would not care if I cried out or commanded him to stop. But the queen in her knew that
would be folly. Tell me of your journey.
He gave a careless shrug. The Yunkaii sent some hired swords to close the Khyzai Pass. The
Long Lances, they name themselves. We descended on them in the night and sent a few to hell. In
Lhazar I slew two of my own serjeants for plotting to steal the gems and gold plate my queen had
entrusted to me as gifts for the Lamb Men. Elsewise, all went as I had promised.
How many men did you lose in the fighting?
Nine, said Daario, but a dozen of the Long Lances decided they would sooner be Stormcrows
than corpses, so we came out three ahead. I told them they would live longer fighting with your dragons
than against them, and they saw the wisdom in my words.
That made her wary. They might be spying for Yunkai.
They are too stupid to be spies. You do not know them.
Neither do you. Do you trust them?

I trust all my men. Just as far as I can spit. He spat out a seed and smiled at her suspicions.
Shall I bring their heads to you? I will, if you command it. One is bald and two have braids and one dyes
his beard four different colors. What spy would wear such a beard, I ask you? The slinger can put a stone
through a gnats eye at forty paces, and the ugly one has a way with horses, but if my queen says that
they must die 
I did not say that. I only  see that you keep your eye on them, thats all. She felt foolish
saying it. She always felt a little foolish when she was with Daario. Gawky and girlish and slow-witted.
What must he think of me? She changed the subject. Will the Lamb Men send us food?
Grain will come down the Skahazadhan by barge, my queen, and other goods by caravan over
the Khyzai.
Not the Skahazadhan. The river has been closed to us. The seas as well. You will have seen the
ships out in the bay. The Qartheen have driven off a third of our fishing fleet and seized another third.
The others are too frightened to leave port. What little trade we still had has been cut off.
Daario tossed away the pear stem. Qartheen have milk in their veins. Let them see your
dragons, and theyll run.
Dany did not want to talk about the dragons. Farmers still came to her court with burned bones,
complaining of missing sheep, though Drogon had not returned to the city. Some reported seeing him
north of the river, above the grass of the Dothraki sea. Down in the pit, Viserion had snapped one of his
chains; he and Rhaegal grew more savage every day. Once the iron doors had glowed red-hot, her
Unsullied told her, and no one dared to touch them for a day. Astapor is under siege as well.
This I knew. One of the Long Lances lived long enough to tell us that men were eating one
another in the Red City. He said Meereens turn would come soon, so I cut his tongue out and fed it to a
yellow dog. No dog will eat a liars tongue. When the yellow dog ate his, I knew he spoke the truth.
I have war inside the city too. She told him of the Harpys Sons and the Brazen Beasts, of blood
upon the bricks. My enemies are all around me, within the city and without.
Attack, he said at once. A man surrounded by foes cannot defend himself. Try, and the axe
will take you in the back whilst you are parrying the sword. No. When faced with many enemies, choose
the weakest, kill him, ride over him, and escape.
Where should I escape to?
Into my bed. Into my arms. Into my heart. The hilts of Daarios arakh and stiletto were
wrought in the shape of golden women, naked and wanton. He brushed his thumbs across them in a
way that was remarkably obscene and smiled a wicked smile.
Dany felt blood rushing to her face. It was almost as if he were caressing her. Would he think me
wanton too if I pulled him into bed? He made her want to be his wanton. I should never see him alone.

He is too dangerous to have near me. The Green Grace says that I must take a Ghiscari king, she said,
flustered. She urges me to wed the noble Hizdahr zo Loraq.
That one? Daario chuckled. Why not Grey Worm, if you want a eunuch in your bed? Do you
want a king?
I want you. I want peace. I gave Hizdahr ninety days to end the killings. If he does, I will take
him for a husband.
Take me for your husband. I will do it in nine.
You know I cannot do that, she almost said. You are fighting shadows when you should be
fighting the men who cast them, Daario went on. Kill them all and take their treasures, I say. Whisper
the command, and your Daario will make you a pile of their heads taller than this pyramid.
If I knew who they were
Zhak and Pahl and Merreq. Them, and all the rest. The Great Masters. Who else would it be?
He is as bold as he is bloody. We have no proof this is their work. Would you have me slaughter
my own subjects?
Your own subjects would gladly slaughter you.
He had been so long away, Dany had almost forgotten what he was. Sellswords were
treacherous by nature, she reminded herself. Fickle, faithless, brutal. He will never be more than he is.
He will never be the stuff of kings. The pyramids are strong, she explained to him. We could take
them only at great cost. The moment we attack one the others will rise against us.
Then winkle them out of their pyramids on some pretext. A wedding might serve. Why not?
Promise your hand to Hizdahr and all the Great Masters will come to see you married. When they gather
in the Temple of the Graces, turn us loose upon them.
Dany was appalled. He is a monster. A gallant monster, but a monster still. Do you take me for
the Butcher King?
Better the butcher than the meat. All kings are butchers. Are queens so different?
This queen is.
Daario shrugged. Most queens have no purpose but to warm some kings bed and pop out sons
for him. If thats the sort of queen you mean to be, best marry Hizdahr.
Her anger flashed. Have you forgotten who I am?
No. Have you?

Viserys would have his head off for that insolence. I am the blood of the dragon. Do not
presume to teach me lessons. When Dany stood, the lion pelt slipped from her shoulders and tumbled
to the ground. Leave me.
Daario gave her a sweeping bow. I live to obey.
When he was gone, Daenerys called Ser Barristan back. I want the Stormcrows back in the
field.
Your Grace? They have only now returned 
I want them gone. Let them scout the Yunkish hinterlands and give protection to any caravans
coming over the Khyzai Pass. Henceforth Daario shall make his reports to you. Give him every honor that
is due him and see that his men are well paid, but on no account admit him to my presence.
As you say, Your Grace.
That night she could not sleep but turned and twisted restlessly in her bed. She even went so far
as to summon Irri, hoping her caresses might help ease her way to rest, but after a short while she
pushed the Dothraki girl away. Irri was sweet and soft and willing, but she was not Daario.
What have I done? she thought, huddled in her empty bed. I have waited so long for him to
come back, and I send him away. He would make a monster of me, she whispered, a butcher queen.
But then she thought of Drogon far away, and the dragons in the pit. There is blood on my hands too,
and on my heart. We are not so different, Daario and I. We are both monsters.
THE LOST LORD
It should not have taken this long, Griff told himself as he paced the deck of the Shy Maid. Had
they lost Haldon as they had Tyrion Lannister? Could the Volantenes have taken him? I should have sent
Duck-field with him. Haldon alone could not be trusted; he had proved that in Selhorys when he let the
dwarf escape.
The Shy Maid was tied up in one of the meaner sections of the long, chaotic riverfront, between
a listing poleboat that had not left the pier in years and the gaily painted mummers barge. The
mummers were a loud and lively lot, always quoting speeches at each other and drunk more oft than
not.
The day was hot and sticky, as all the days had been since they left the Sorrows. A ferocious
southern sun beat down upon the crowded riverfront of Volon Therys, but heat was the last and least of
Griffs concerns. The Golden Company was encamped three miles south of town, well north of where he
had expected them, and Triarch Malaquo had come north with five thousand foot and a thousand horse
to cut them off from the delta road. Daenerys Targaryen remained a world away, and Tyrion Lannister 

well, he could be most anywhere. If the gods were good, Lannisters severed head was halfway back to
Kings Landing by now, but more like the dwarf was hale and whole and somewhere close, stinking
drunk and plotting some new infamy.
Where in the seven hells is Haldon? Griff complained to Lady Lemore. How long should it
take to buy three horses?
She shrugged. My lord, wouldnt it be safer to leave the boy here aboard the boat?
Safer, yes. Wiser, no. He is a man grown now, and this is the road that he was born to walk.
Griff had no patience for this quibbling. He was sick of hiding, sick of waiting, sick of caution. I do not
have time enough for caution.
We have gone to great lengths to keep Prince Aegon hidden all these years, Lemore reminded
him. The time will come for him to wash his hair and declare himself, I know, but that time is not now.
Not to a camp of sellswords.
If Harry Strickland means him ill, hiding him on the Shy Maid will not protect him. Strickland has
ten thousand swords at his command. We have Duck. Aegon is all that could be wanted in a prince. They
need to see that, Strickland and the rest. These are his own men.
His because theyre bought and paid for. Ten thousand armed strangers, plus hangers-on and
camp followers. All it takes is one to bring us all to ruin. If Hugors head was worth a lords honors, how
much will Cersei Lannister pay for the rightful heir to the Iron Throne? You do not know these men, my
lord. It has been a dozen years since you last rode with the Golden Company, and your old friend is
dead.
Blackheart. Myles Toyne had been so full of life the last time Griff had left him, it was hard to
accept that he was gone. A golden skull atop a pole, and Homeless Harry Strickland in his place. Lemore
was not wrong, he knew. Whatever their sires or their grandsires might have been back in Westeros
before their exile, the men of the Golden Company were sell-swords now, and no sellsword could be
trusted. Even so 
Last night hed dreamt of Stoney Sept again. Alone, with sword in hand, he ran from house to
house, smashing down doors, racing up stairs, leaping from roof to roof, as his ears rang to the sound of
distant bells. Deep bronze booms and silver chiming pounded through his skull, a maddening cacophony
of noise that grew ever louder until it seemed as if his head would explode.
Seventeen years had come and gone since the Battle of the Bells, yet the sound of bells ringing
still tied a knot in his guts. Others might claim that the realm was lost when Prince Rhaegar fell to
Roberts warhammer on the Trident, but the Battle of the Trident would never have been fought if the
griffin had only slain the stag there in Stoney Sept. The bells tolled for all of us that day. For Aerys and his
queen, for Elia of Dorne and her little daughter, for every true man and honest woman in the Seven
Kingdoms. And for my silver prince.

The plan was to reveal Prince Aegon only when we reached Queen Daenerys, Lemore was
saying.
That was when we believed the girl was coming west. Our dragon queen has burned that plan
to ash, and thanks to that fat fool in Pentos, we have grasped the she-dragon by the tail and burned our
fingers to the bone.
Illyrio could not have been expected to know that the girl would choose to remain at Slavers
Bay.
No more than he knew that the Beggar King would die young, or that Khal Drogo would follow
him into the grave. Very little of what the fat man has anticipated has come to pass. Griff slapped the
hilt of his long-sword with a gloved hand. I have danced to the fat mans pipes for years, Lemore. What
has it availed us? The prince is a man grown. His time is
Griff, Yandry called loudly, above the clanging of the mummers bell. Its Haldon.
So it was. The Halfmaester looked hot and bedraggled as he made his way along the waterfront
to the foot of the pier. Sweat had left dark rings beneath the arms of his light linen robes, and he had
the same sour look on his long face as at Selhorys, when he returned to the Shy Maid to confess that the
dwarf was gone. He was leading three horses, however, and that was all that mattered.
Bring the boy, Griff told Lemore. See that hes ready.
As you say, she answered, unhappily.
So be it. He had grown fond of Lemore, but that did not mean he required her approval. Her task
had been to instruct the prince in the doctrines of the Faith, and she had done that. No amount of
prayer would put him on the Iron Throne, however. That was Griffs task. He had failed Prince Rhaegar
once. He would not fail his son, not whilst life remained in his body.
Haldons horses did not please him. Were these the best that you could find? he complained
to the Halfmaester.
They were, said Haldon, in an irritated tone, and you had best not ask what they cost us.
With Dothraki across the river, half the populace of Volon Therys has decided they would sooner be
elsewhere, so horseflesh grows more expensive every day.
I should have gone myself. After Selhorys, he had found it difficult to put the same trust in
Haldon as previously. He let the dwarf beguile him with that glib tongue of his. Let him wander off into a
whorehouse alone while he lingered like a mooncalf in the square. The brothel keeper had insisted that
the little man had been carried off at swordpoint, but Griff was still not sure he believed that. The Imp
was clever enough to have conspired in his own escape. This drunken captor that the whores spoke of
could have been some henchman in his hire. I share the blame. After the dwarf put himself between

Aegon and the stone man, I let down my guard. I should have slit his throat the first time I laid eyes on
him.
They will do well enough, I suppose, he told Haldon. The camp is only three miles south. The
Shy Maid would have gotten them there more quickly, but he preferred to keep Harry Strickland
ignorant of where he and the prince had been. Nor did he relish the prospect of splashing through the
shallows to climb some muddy riverbank. That sort of entrance might serve for a sellsword and his son,
but not for a great lord and his prince.
When the lad emerged from the cabin with Lemore by his side, Griff looked him over carefully
from head to heel. The prince wore sword and dagger, black boots polished to a high sheen, a black
cloak lined with blood-red silk. With his hair washed and cut and freshly dyed a deep, dark blue, his eyes
looked blue as well. At his throat he wore three huge square-cut rubies on a chain of black iron, a gift
from Magister Illyrio. Red and black. Dragon colors. That was good. You look a proper prince, he told
the boy. Your father would be proud if he could see you.
Young Griff ran his fingers through his hair. I am sick of this blue dye. We should have washed it
out.
Soon enough. Griff would be glad to go back to his own true colors too, though his once red
hair had gone to grey. He clapped the lad on the shoulder. Shall we go? Your army awaits your
coming.
I like the sound of that. My army. A smile flashed across his face, then vanished. Are they,
though? Theyre sellswords. Yollo warned me to trust no one.
There is wisdom in that, Griff admitted. It might have been different if Blackheart still
commanded, but Myles Toyne was four years dead, and Homeless Harry Strickland was a different sort
of man. He would not say that to the boy, however. That dwarf had already planted enough doubts in
his young head. Not every man is what he seems, and a prince especially has good cause to be wary 
but go too far down that road, and the mistrust can poison you, make you sour and fearful. King Aerys
was one such. By the end, even Rhaegar saw that plain enough. You would do best to walk a middle
course. Let men earn your trust with leal service  but when they do, be generous and openhearted.
The boy nodded. I will remember.
They gave the prince the best of the three horses, a big grey gelding so pale that he was almost
white. Griff and Haldon rode beside him on lesser mounts. The road ran south beneath the high white
walls of Volon Therys for a good half mile. Then they left the town behind, following the winding course
of the Rhoyne through willow groves and poppy fields and past a tall wooden windmill whose blades
creaked like old bones as they turned.
They found the Golden Company beside the river as the sun was lowering in the west. It was a
camp that even Arthur Dayne might have approved ofcompact, orderly, defensible. A deep ditch had
been dug around it, with sharpened stakes inside. The tents stood in rows, with broad avenues between

them. The latrines had been placed beside the river, so the current would wash away the wastes. The
horse lines were to the north, and beyond them, two dozen elephants grazed beside the water, pulling
up reeds with their trunks. Griff glanced at the great grey beasts with approval. There is not a warhorse
in all of Westeros that will stand against them.
Tall battle standards of cloth-of-gold flapped atop lofty poles along the perimeters of the camp.
Beneath them, armed and armored sentries walked their rounds with spears and crossbows, watching
every approach. Griff had feared that the company might have grown lax under Harry Strickland, who
had always seemed more concerned with making friends than enforcing discipline; but it would seem his
worries had been misplaced.
At the gate, Haldon said something to the serjeant of guards, and a runner was sent off to find a
captain. When he turned up, he was just as ugly as the last time Griff laid eyes on him. A big-bellied,
shambling hulk of a man, the sellsword had a seamed face crisscrossed with old scars. His right ear
looked as if a dog had chewed on it and his left was missing. Have they made you a captain, Flowers?
Griff said. I thought the Golden Company had standards.
Its worse than that, you bugger, said Franklyn Flowers. They knighted me as well. He
clasped Griff by the forearm, pulled him into a bone-crushing hug. You look awful, even for a mans
been dead a dozen years. Blue hair, is it? When Harry said youd be turning up, I almost shit myself. And
Haldon, you icy cunt, good to see you too. Still have that stick up your arse? He turned to Young Griff.
And this would be 
My squire. Lad, this is Franklyn Flowers.
The prince acknowledged him with a nod. Flowers is a bastard name. Youre from the Reach.
Aye. My mother was a washerwoman at Cider Hall till one of milords sons raped her. Makes
me a sort o brown apple Fossoway, the way I see it. Flowers waved them through the gate. Come
with me. Stricklands called all the officers to his tent. War council. The bloody Volantenes are rattling
their spears and demanding to know our intentions.
The men of the Golden Company were outside their tents, dicing, drinking, and swatting away
flies. Griff wondered how many of them knew who he was. Few enough. Twelve years is a long time.
Even the men whod ridden with him might not recognize the exile lord Jon Connington of the fiery red
beard in the lined, clean-shaved face and dyed blue hair of the sellsword Griff. So far as most of them
were concerned, Connington had drunk himself to death in Lys after being driven from the company in
disgrace for stealing from the war chest. The shame of the lie still stuck in his craw, but Varys had
insisted it was necessary. We want no songs about the gallant exile, the eunuch had tittered, in that
mincing voice of his. Those who die heroic deaths are long remembered, thieves and drunks and
cravens soon forgotten.
What does a eunuch know of a mans honor? Griff had gone along with the Spiders scheme for
the boys sake, but that did not mean he liked it any better. Let me live long enough to see the boy sit

the Iron Throne, and Varys will pay for that slight and so much more. Then well see whos soon
forgotten.
The captain-generals tent was made of cloth-of-gold and surrounded by a ring of pikes topped
with gilded skulls. One skull was larger than the rest, grotesquely malformed. Below it was a second, no
larger than a childs fist. Maelys the Monstrous and his nameless brother. The other skulls had a
sameness to them, though several had been cracked and splintered by the blows that had slain them,
and one had filed, pointed teeth. Which one is Myles? Griff found himself asking.
There. On the end. Flowers pointed. Wait. Ill go announce you. He slipped inside the tent,
leaving Griff to contemplate the gilded skull of his old friend. In life, Ser Myles Toyne had been ugly as
sin. His famous forebear, the dark and dashing Terrence Toyne of whom the singers sang, had been so
fair of face that even the kings mistress could not resist him; but Myles had been possessed of jug ears,
a crooked jaw, and the biggest nose that Jon Connington had ever seen. When he smiled at you, though,
none of that mattered. Blackheart, his men had named him, for the sigil on his shield. Myles had loved
the name and all it hinted at. A captain-general should be feared, by friend and foe alike, he had once
confessed. If men think me cruel, so much the better. The truth was otherwise. Soldier to the bone,
Toyne was fierce but always fair, a father to his men and always generous to the exile lord Jon
Connington.
Death had robbed him of his ears, his nose, and all his warmth. The smile remained,
transformed into a glittering golden grin. All the skulls were grinning, even Bittersteels on the tall pike in
the center. What does he have to grin about? He died defeated and alone, a broken man in an alien
land. On his deathbed, Ser Aegor Rivers had famously commanded his men to boil the flesh from his
skull, dip it in gold, and carry it before them when they crossed the sea to retake Westeros. His
successors had followed his example.
Jon Connington might have been one of those successors if his exile had gone otherwise. He had
spent five years with the company, rising from the ranks to a place of honor at Toynes right hand. Had
he stayed, it might well have been him the men turned to after Myles died, instead of Harry Strickland.
But Griff did not regret the path hed chosen. When I return to Westeros, it will not be as a skull atop a
pole.
Flowers stepped out of the tent. Go on in.
The high officers of the Golden Company rose from stools and camp chairs as they entered. Old
friends greeted Griff with smiles and embraces, the new men more formally. Not all of them are as glad
to see us as they would have me believe. He sensed knives behind some of the smiles. Until quite
recently, most of them had believed that Lord Jon Connington was safely in his grave, and no doubt
many felt that was a fine place for him, a man who would steal from his brothers-in-arms. Griff might
have felt the same way in their place.
Ser Franklyn did the introductions. Some of the sellsword captains bore bastard names, as
Flowers did: Rivers, Hill, Stone. Others claimed names that had once loomed large in the histories of the

Seven Kingdoms; Griff counted two Strongs, three Peakes, a Mudd, a Mandrake, a Lothston, a pair of
Coles. Not all were genuine, he knew. In the free companies, a man could call himself whatever he
chose. By any name, the sellswords displayed a rude splendor. Like many in their trade, they kept their
worldly wealth upon their persons: jeweled swords, inlaid armor, heavy torcs, and fine silks were much
in evidence, and every man there wore a lords ransom in golden arm rings. Each ring signified one
years service with the Golden Company. Marq Mandrake, whose pox-scarred face had a hole in one
cheek where a slaves mark had been burned away, wore a chain of golden skulls as well.
Not every captain was of Westerosi blood. Black Balaq, a white-haired Summer Islander with
skin dark as soot, commanded the companys archers, as in Blackhearts day. He wore a feathered cloak
of green and orange, magnificent to behold. The cadaverous Volantene, Gorys Edoryen, had replaced
Strickland as paymaster. A leopard skin was draped across one shoulder, and hair as red as blood
tumbled to his shoulders in oiled ringlets though his pointed beard was black. The spymaster was new to
Griff, a Lyseni named Lysono Maar, with lilac eyes and white-gold hair and lips that would have been the
envy of a whore. At first glance, Griff had almost taken him for a woman. His fingernails were painted
purple, and his earlobes dripped with pearls and amethysts.
Ghosts and liars, Griff thought, as he surveyed their faces. Revenants from forgotten wars, lost
causes, failed rebellions, a brotherhood of the failed and the fallen, the disgraced and the disinherited.
This is my army. This is our best hope.
He turned to Harry Strickland.
Homeless Harry looked little like a warrior. Portly, with a big round head, mild grey eyes, and
thinning hair that he brushed sideways to conceal a bald spot, Strickland sat in a camp chair soaking his
feet in a tub of salt water. You will pardon me if I do not rise, he said by way of greeting. Our march
was wearisome, and my toes are prone to blisters. It is a curse.
It is a mark of weakness. You sound like an old woman. The Stricklands had been part of the
Golden Company since its founding, Harrys great-grandsire having lost his lands when he rose with the
Black Dragon during the first Blackfyre Rebellion. Gold for four generations, Harry would boast, as if
four generations of exile and defeat were something to take pride in.
I can make you an ointment for that, said Haldon, and there are certain mineral salts that will
toughen your skin.
That is kind of you. Strickland beckoned to his squire. Watkyn, wine for our friends.
Thank you, but no, said Griff. We will drink water.
As you prefer. The captain-general smiled up at the prince. And this must be your son.
Does he know? Griff wondered. How much did Myles tell him? Varys had been adamant about
the need for secrecy. The plans that he and Illyrio had made with Blackheart had been known to them
alone. The rest of the company had been left ignorant. What they did not know they could not let slip.

That time was done, though. No man could have asked for a worthier son, Griff said, but the
lad is not of my blood, and his name is not Griff. My lords, I give you Aegon Targaryen, firstborn son of
Rhaegar, Prince of Dragonstone, by Princess Elia of Dorne  soon, with your help, to be Aegon, the Sixth
of His Name, King of Andals, the Rhoynar, and the First Men, and Lord of the Seven Kingdoms.
Silence greeted his announcement. Someone cleared his throat. One of the Coles refilled his
wine cup from the flagon. Gorys Edoryen played with one of his corkscrew ringlets and murmured
something in a tongue Griff did not know. Laswell Peake coughed, Mandrake and Lothston exchanged a
glance. They know, Griff realized then. They have known all along. He turned to look at Harry Strickland.
When did you tell them?
The captain-general wriggled his blistered toes in his footbath. When we reached the river. The
company was restless, with good reason. We walked away from an easy campaign in the Disputed
Lands, and for what? So we could swelter in this god-awful heat watching our coins melt away and our
blades go to rust whilst I turn away rich contracts?
That news made Griffs skin crawl. Who?
The Yunkishmen. The envoy that they sent to woo Volantis has already dispatched three free
companies to Slavers Bay. He wishes us to be the fourth and offers twice what Myr was paying us, plus
a slave for every man in the company, ten for every officer, and a hundred choice maidens all for me.
Bloody hell. That would require thousands of slaves. Where do the Yunkishmen expect to find
so many?
In Meereen. Strickland beckoned to his squire. Watkyn, a towel. This waters growing cool,
and my toes have wrinkled up like raisins. No, not that towel, the soft one.
You refused him, said Griff. I told him I would think on his proposal. Harry winced as his
squire toweled his feet. Gentle with the toes. Think of them as thin-skinned grapes, lad. You want to
dry them without crushing them. Pat, do not scrub. Yes, like that. He turned back to Griff. A blunt
refusal would have been unwise. The men might rightly ask if I had taken leave of my wits.
You will have work for your blades soon enough.
Will we? asked Lysono Maar. I assume you know that the Targaryen girl has not started for
the west?
We heard that tale in Selhorys.
No tale. Simple truth. The why of it is harder to grasp. Sack Meereen, aye, why not? I would
have done the same in her place. The slaver cities reek of gold, and conquest requires coin. But why
linger? Fear? Madness? Sloth?
The why of it does not matter. Harry Strickland unrolled a pair of striped woolen stockings.
She is in Meereen and we are here, where the Volantenes grow daily more unhappy with our presence.

We came to raise up a king and queen who would lead us home to Westeros, but this Targaryen girl
seems more intent on planting olive trees than in reclaiming her fathers throne. Meanwhile, her foes
gather. Yunkai, New Ghis, Tolos. Bloodbeard and the Tattered Prince will both be in the field against her
 and soon enough the fleets of Old Volantis will descend on her as well. What does she have?
Bedslaves with sticks?
Unsullied, said Griff. And dragons.
Dragons, aye, the captain-general said, but young ones, hardly more than hatchlings.
Strickland eased his sock over his blisters and up his ankle. How much will they avail her when all these
armies close about her city like a fist?
Tristan Rivers drummed his fingers on his knee. All the more reason that we must reach her
quickly, I say. If Daenerys will not come to us, we must go to Daenerys.
Can we walk across the waves, ser? asked Lysono Maar. I tell you again, we cannot reach the
silver queen by sea. I slipped into Volantis myself, posing as a trader, to learn how many ships might be
available to us. The harbor teems with galleys, cogs, and carracks of every sort and size, yet even so I
soon found myself consorting with smugglers and pirates. We have ten thousand men in the company,
as I am sure Lord Connington remembers from his years of service with us. Five hundred knights, each
with three horses. Five hundred squires, with one mount apiece. And elephants, we must not forget the
elephants. A pirate ship will not suffice. We would need a pirate fleet  and even if we found one, the
word has come back from Slavers Bay that Meereen has been closed off by blockade.
We could feign acceptance of the Yunkish offer, urged Gorys Edoryen. Allow the Yunkaii to
transport us to the east, then return their gold beneath the walls of Meereen.
One broken contract is stain enough upon the honor of the company. Homeless Harry
Strickland paused with his blistered foot in hand. Let me remind you, it was Myles Toyne who put his
seal to this secret pact, not me. I would honor his agreement if I could, but how? It seems plain to me
that the Targaryen girl is never coming west. Westeros was her fathers kingdom. Meereen is hers. If she
can break the Yunkaii, shell be Queen of Slavers Bay. If not, shell die long before we could hope to
reach her.
His words came as no surprise to Griff. Harry Strickland had always been a genial man, better at
hammering out contracts than at hammering on foes. He had a nose for gold, but whether he had the
belly for battle was another question.
There is the land route, suggested Franklyn Flowers. The demon road is death. We will lose
half the company to desertion if we attempt that march, and bury half of those who remain beside the
road. It grieves me to say it, but Magister Illyrio and his friends may have been unwise to put so much
hope on this child queen.

No, thought Griff, but they were most unwise to put their hopes on you. And then Prince Aegon
spoke. Then put your hopes on me, he said. Daenerys is Prince Rhaegars sister, but I am Rhaegars
son. I am the only dragon that you need.
Griff put a black-gloved hand upon Prince Aegons shoulder. Spoken boldly, he said, but think
what you are saying.
I have, the lad insisted. Why should I go running to my aunt as if I were a beggar? My claim is
better than her own. Let her come to me  in Westeros.
Franklyn Flowers laughed. I like it. Sail west, not east. Leave the little queen to her olives and
seat Prince Aegon upon the Iron Throne. The boy has stones, give him that.
The captain-general looked as if someone had slapped his face. Has the sun curdled your
brains, Flowers? We need the girl. We need the marriage. If Daenerys accepts our princeling and takes
him for her consort, the Seven Kingdoms will do the same. Without her, the lords will only mock his
claim and brand him a fraud and a pretender. And how do you propose to get to Westeros? You heard
Lysono. There are no ships to be had.
This man is afraid to fight, Griff realized. How could they have chosen him to take the
Blackhearts place? No ships for Slavers Bay. Westeros is another matter. The east is closed to us, not
the sea. The triarchs would be glad to see the back of us, I do not doubt. They might even help us
arrange passage back to the Seven Kingdoms. No city wants an army on its doorstep.
Hes not wrong, said Lysono Maar. By now the lion surely has the dragons scent, said one of
the Coles, but Cerseis attentions will be fixed upon Meereen and this other queen. She knows nothing
of our prince. Once we land and raise our banners, many and more will flock to join us.
Some, allowed Homeless Harry, not many. Rhaegars sister has dragons. Rhaegars son does
not. We do not have the strength to take the realm without Daenerys and her army. Her Unsullied.
The first Aegon took Westeros without eunuchs, said Lysono Maar. Why shouldnt the sixth
Aegon do the same?
The plan
Which plan? said Tristan Rivers. The fat mans plan? The one that changes every time the
moon turns? First Viserys Targaryen was to join us with fifty thousand Dothraki screamers at his back.
Then the Beggar King was dead, and it was to be the sister, a pliable young child queen who was on her
way to Pentos with three new-hatched dragons. Instead the girl turns up on Slavers Bay and leaves a
string of burning cities in her wake, and the fat man decides we should meet her by Volantis. Now that
plan is in ruins as well.

I have had enough of Illyrios plans. Robert Baratheon won the Iron Throne without the benefit
of dragons. We can do the same. And if I am wrong and the realm does not rise for us, we can always
retreat back across the narrow sea, as Bittersteel once did, and others after him.
Strickland shook his head stubbornly. The risk
is not what it was, now that Tywin Lannister is dead. The Seven Kingdoms will never be more
ripe for conquest. Another boy king sits the Iron Throne, this one even younger than the last, and rebels
are thick upon the ground as autumn leaves.
Even so, said Strickland, alone, we cannot hope to
Griff had heard enough of the captain-generals cowardice. We will not be alone. Dorne will
join us, must join us. Prince Aegon is Elias son as well as Rhaegars.
Thats so, the boy said, and who is there left in Westeros to oppose us? A woman.
A Lannister woman, insisted the captain-general. The bitch will have the Kingslayer at her
side, count on that, and they will have all the wealth of Casterly Rock behind them. And Illyrio says this
boy king is betrothed to the Tyrell girl, which means we must face the power of High-garden as well.
Laswell Peake rapped his knuckles on the table. Even after a century, some of us still have
friends in the Reach. The power of Highgarden may not be what Mace Tyrell imagines.
Prince Aegon, said Tristan Rivers, we are your men. Is this your wish, that we sail west
instead of east?
It is, Aegon replied eagerly. If my aunt wants Meereen, shes welcome to it. I will claim the
Iron Throne by myself, with your swords and your allegiance. Move fast and strike hard, and we can win
some easy victories before the Lannisters even know that we have landed. That will bring others to our
cause.
Rivers was smiling in approval. Others traded thoughtful looks. Then Peake said, I would sooner
die in Westeros than on the demon road, and Marq Mandrake chuckled and responded, Me, Id
sooner live, win lands and some great castle, and Franklyn Flowers slapped his sword hilt and said, So
long as I can kill some Fossoways, Im for it.
When all of them began to speak at once, Griff knew the tide had turned. This is a side of Aegon
I never saw before. It was not the prudent course, but he was tired of prudence, sick of secrets, weary of
waiting. Win or lose, he would see Griffins Roost again before he died, and be buried in the tomb beside
his fathers.
One by one, the men of the Golden Company rose, knelt, and laid their swords at the feet of his
young prince. The last to do so was Homeless Harry Strickland, blistered feet and all.

The sun was reddening the western sky and painting scarlet shadows on the golden skulls atop
their spears when they took their leave of the captain-generals tent. Franklyn Flowers offered to take
the prince around the camp and introduce him to some of what he called the lads. Griff gave his
consent. But remember, so far as the company is concerned, he must remain Young Griff until we cross
the narrow sea. In Westeros well wash his hair and let him don his armor.
Aye, understood. Flowers clapped a hand on Young Griffs back. With me. Well start with the
cooks. Good men to know.
When they were gone, Griff turned to the Halfmaester. Ride back to the Shy Maid and return
with Lady Lemore and Ser Rolly. Well need Illyrios chests as well. All the coin, and the armor. Give
Yandry and Ysilla our thanks. Their part in this is done. They will not be forgotten when His Grace comes
into his kingdom.
As you command, my lord.
Griff left him there, and slipped inside the tent that Homeless Harry had assigned him.
The road ahead was full of perils, he knew, but what of it? All men must die. All he asked was
time. He had waited so long, surely the gods would grant him a few more years, enough time to see the
boy hed called a son seated on the Iron Throne. To reclaim his lands, his name, his honor. To still the
bells that rang so loudly in his dreams whenever he closed his eyes to sleep.
Alone in the tent, as the gold and scarlet rays of the setting sun shone through the open flap,
Jon Connington shrugged off his wolfskin cloak, slipped his mail shirt off over his head, settled on a camp
stool, and peeled the glove from his right hand. The nail on his middle finger had turned as black as jet,
he saw, and the grey had crept up almost to the first knuckle. The tip of his ring finger had begun to
darken too, and when he touched it with the point of his dagger, he felt nothing.
Death, he knew, but slow. I still have time. A year. Two years. Five. Some stone men live for ten.
Time enough to cross the sea, to see Griffins Roost again. To end the Usurpers line for good and all, and
put Rhaegars son upon the Iron Throne.
Then Lord Jon Connington could die content.
THE WINDBLOWN
The word passed through the camp like a hot wind. She is coming. Her host is on the march. She
is racing south to Yunkai, to put the city to the torch and its people to the sword, and we are going north
to meet her.
Frog had it from Dick Straw who had it from Old Bill Bone who had it from a Pentoshi named
Myrio Myrakis, who had a cousin who served as cupbearer to the Tattered Prince. Coz heard it in the

command tent, from Caggos own lips, Dick Straw insisted. Well march before the day is out, see if we
dont.
That much proved true. The command came down from the Tattered Prince through his
captains and his serjeants: strike the tents, load the mules, saddle the horses, we march for Yunkai at
the break of day. Not that them Yunkish bastards will be wanting us inside their Yellow City, sniffing
round their daughters, predicted Baqq, the squint-eyed Myrish crossbowman whose name meant
Beans. Well get provisions in Yunkai, maybe fresh horses, then it will be on to Meereen to dance with
the dragon queen. So hop quick, Frog, and put a nice edge on your masters sword. Might be hell need
it soon.
In Dorne Quentyn Martell had been a prince, in Volantis a merchants man, but on the shores of
Slavers Bay he was only Frog, squire to the big bald Dornish knight the sellswords called Greenguts. The
men of the Windblown used what names they would, and changed them at a whim. Theyd fastened
Frog on him because he hopped so fast when the big man shouted a command.
Even the commander of the Windblown kept his true name to himself. Some free companies
had been born during the century of blood and chaos that had followed the Doom of Valyria. Others had
been formed yesterday and would be gone upon the morrow. The Windblown went back thirty years,
and had known but one commander, the soft-spoken, sad-eyed Pentoshi nobleman called the Tattered
Prince. His hair and mail were silver-grey, but his ragged cloak was made of twists of cloth of many
colors, blue and grey and purple, red and gold and green, magenta and vermilion and cerulean, all faded
by the sun. When the Tattered Prince was three-and-twenty, as Dick Straw told the story, the magisters
of Pentos had chosen him to be their new prince, hours after beheading their old prince. Instead hed
buckled on a sword, mounted his favorite horse, and fled to the Disputed Lands, never to return. He had
ridden with the Second Sons, the Iron Shields, and the Maidens Men, then joined with five
brothers-in-arms to form the Windblown. Of those six founders, only he survived.
Frog had no notion whether any of that was true. Since signing into the Windblown in Volantis,
he had seen the Tattered Prince only at a distance. The Dornishmen were new hands, raw recruits,
arrow fodder, three amongst two thousand. Their commander kept more elevated company. I am not a
squire, Quentyn had protested when Gerris Drinkwaterknown here as Dornish Gerrold, to distinguish
him from Gerrold Redback and Black Gerrold, and sometimes as Drink, since the big man had slipped
and called him thatsuggested the ruse. I earned my spurs in Dorne. I am as much a knight as you
are.
But Gerris had the right of it; he and Arch were here to protect Quentyn, and that meant
keeping him by the big mans side. Arch is the best fighter of the three of us, Drinkwater had pointed
out, but only you can hope to wed the dragon queen.
Wed her or fight her; either way, I will face her soon. The more Quentyn heard of Daenerys
Targaryen, the more he feared that meeting. The Yunkaii claimed that she fed her dragons on human
flesh and bathed in the blood of virgins to keep her skin smooth and supple. Beans laughed at that but
relished the tales of the silver queens promiscuity. One of her captains comes of a line where the men

have foot-long members, he told them, but even hes not big enough for her. She rode with the
Dothraki and grew accustomed to being fucked by stallions, so now no man can fill her. And Books, the
clever Volantene swordsman who always seemed to have his nose poked in some crumbly scroll,
thought the dragon queen both murderous and mad. Her khal killed her brother to make her queen.
Then she killed her khal to make herself khaleesi. She practices blood sacrifice, lies as easily as she
breathes, turns against her own on a whim. Shes broken truces, tortured envoys  her father was mad
too. It runs in the blood.
It runs in the blood. King Aerys II had been mad, all of Westeros knew that. He had exiled two of
his Hands and burned a third. If Daenerys is as murdeous as her father, must I still marry her? Prince
Doran had never spoken of that possibility.
Frog would be glad to put Astapor behind him. The Red City was the closest thing to hell he ever
hoped to know. The Yunkaii had sealed the broken gates to keep the dead and dying inside the city, but
the sights that he had seen riding down those red brick streets would haunt Quentyn Martell forever. A
river choked with corpses. The priestess in her torn robes, impaled upon a stake and attended by a cloud
of glistening green flies. Dying men staggering through the streets, bloody and befouled. Children
fighting over half-cooked puppies. The last free king of Astapor, screaming naked in the pit as he was set
on by a score of starving dogs. And fires, fires everywhere. He could close his eyes and see them still:
flames whirling from brick pyramids larger than any castle he had ever seen, plumes of greasy smoke
coiling upward like great black snakes.
When the wind blew from the south, the air smelled of smoke even here, three miles from the
city. Behind its crumbling red brick walls, Astapor was still asmolder, though by now most of the great
fires had burned out. Ashes floated lazy on the breeze like fat grey snowflakes. It would be good to go.
The big man agreed. Past time, he said, when Frog found him dicing with Beans and Books and
Old Bill Bone, and losing yet again. The sellswords loved Greenguts, who bet as fearlessly as he fought,
but with far less success. Ill want my armor, Frog. Did you scrub that blood off my mail?
Aye, ser. Greengutss mail was old and heavy, patched and patched again, much worn. The
same was true of his helm, his gorget, greaves, and gauntlets, and the rest of his mismatched plate.
Frogs kit was only slightly better, and Ser Gerriss was notably worse. Company steel, the armorer had
called it. Quentyn had not asked how many other men had worn it before him, how many men had died
in it. They had abandoned their own fine armor in Volantis, along with their gold and their true names.
Wealthy knights from Houses old in honor did not cross the narrow sea to sell their swords, unless exiled
for some infamy. Id sooner pose as poor than evil, Quentyn had declared, when Gerris had explained
his ruse to them.
It took the Windblown less than an hour to strike their camp. And now we ride, the Tattered
Prince proclaimed from his huge grey war-horse, in a classic High Valyrian that was the closest thing they
had to a company tongue. His stallions spotted hindquarters were covered with ragged strips of cloth
torn from the surcoats of men his master had slain. The princes cloak was sewn together from more of
the same. An old man he was, past sixty, yet he still sat straight and tall in the high saddle, and his voice

was strong enough to carry to every corner of the field. Astapor was but a taste, he said, Meereen
will be the feast, and the sellswords sent up a wild cheer. Streamers of pale blue silk fluttered from
their lances, whilst fork-tailed blue-and-white banners flew overhead, the standards of the Windblown.
The three Dornishmen cheered with all the rest. Silence would have drawn notice. But as the
Windblown rode north along the coast road, close behind Bloodbeard and the Company of the Cat, Frog
fell in beside Dornish Gerrold. Soon, he said, in the Common Tongue of Westeros. There were other
Westerosi in the company, but not many, and not near. We need to do it soon.
Not here, warned Gerris, with a mummers empty smile. Well speak of this tonight, when we
make camp.
It was a hundred leagues from Astapor to Yunkai by the old Ghiscari coast road, and another
fifty from Yunkai to Meereen. The free companies, well mounted, could reach Yunkai in six days of hard
riding, or eight at a more leisurely pace. The legions from Old Ghis would take half again as long,
marching afoot, and the Yunkaii and their slave soldiers  With their generals, its a wonder they dont
march into the sea, Beans said.
The Yunkaii did not lack for commanders. An old hero named Yurkhaz zo Yunzak had the
supreme command, though the men of the Windblown glimpsed him only at a distance, coming and
going in a palanquin so huge it required forty slaves to carry it.
They could not help but see his underlings, however. The Yunkish lordlings scuttled everywhere,
like roaches. Half of them seemed to be named Ghazdan, Grazdan, Mazdhan, or Ghaznak; telling one
Ghiscari name from another was an art few of the Windblown had mastered, so they gave them
mocking styles of their own devising.
Foremost amongst them was the Yellow Whale, an obscenely fat man who always wore yellow
silk tokars with golden fringes. Too heavy even to stand unassisted, he could not hold his water, so he
always smelled of piss, a stench so sharp that even heavy perfumes could not conceal it. But he was said
to be the richest man in Yunkai, and he had a passion for grotesques; his slaves included a boy with the
legs and hooves of a goat, a bearded woman, a two-headed monster from Mantarys, and a
hermaphrodite who warmed his bed at night. Cock and cunny both, Dick Straw told them. The Whale
used to own a giant too, liked to watch him fuck his slave girls. Then he died. I hear the Whaled give a
sack o gold for a new one.
Then there was the Girl General, who rode about on a white horse with a red mane and
commanded a hundred strapping slave soldiers that she had bred and trained herself, all of them young,
lean, rippling with muscle, and naked but for breechclouts, yellow cloaks, and long bronze shields with
erotic inlays. Their mistress could not have been more than sixteen and fancied herself Yunkais own
Daenerys Targaryen.
The Little Pigeon was not quite a dwarf, but he might have passed for one in a bad light. Yet he
strutted about as if he were a giant, with his plump little legs spread wide and his plump little chest

puffed out. His soldiers were the tallest that any of the Windblown had ever seen; the shortest stood
seven feet tall, the tallest close to eight. All were long-faced and long-legged, and the stilts built into the
legs of their ornate armor made them longer still. Pink-enameled scales covered their torsos; on their
heads were perched elongated helms complete with pointed steel beaks and crests of bobbing pink
feathers. Each man wore a long curved sword upon his hip, and each clasped a spear as tall as he was,
with a leaf-shaped blade at either end.
The Little Pigeon breeds them, Dick Straw informed them. He buys tall slaves from all over
the world, mates the men to the women, and keeps their tallest offspring for the Herons. One day he
hopes to be able to dispense with the stilts.
A few sessions on the rack might speed along the process, suggested the big man.
Gerris Drinkwater laughed. A fearsome lot. Nothing scares me worse than stilt-walkers in pink
scales and feathers. If one was after me, Id laugh so hard my bladder might let go.
Some say that herons are majestic, said Old Bill Bone. If your king eats frogs while standing
on one leg.
Herons are craven, the big man put in. One time me and Drink and Cletus were hunting, and
we came on these herons wading in the shallows, feasting on tadpoles and small fish. They made a
pretty sight, aye, but then a hawk passed overhead, and they all took to the wing like theyd seen a
dragon. Kicked up so much wind it blew me off my horse, but Cletus nocked an arrow to his string and
brought one down. Tasted like duck, but not so greasy.
Even the Little Pigeon and his Herons paled beside the folly of the brothers the sellswords called
the Clanker Lords. The last time the slave soldiers of Yunkaii had faced the dragon queens Unsullied,
they broke and ran. The Clanker Lords had devised a stratagem to prevent that; they chained their
troops together in groups of ten, wrist to wrist and ankle to ankle. None of the poor bastards can run
unless they all run, Dick Straw explained, laughing. And if they do all run, they wont run very fast.
They dont fucking march very fast either, observed Beans. You can hear them clanking ten
leagues off.
There were more, near as mad or worse: Lord Wobblecheeks, the Drunken Conqueror, the
Beastmaster, Pudding Face, the Rabbit, the Charioteer, the Perfumed Hero. Some had twenty soldiers,
some two hundred or two thousand, all slaves they had trained and equipped themselves. Every one
was wealthy, every one was arrogant, and every one was a captain and commander, answerable to no
one but Yurkhaz zo Yunzak, disdainful of mere sellswords, and prone to squabbles over precedence that
were as endless as they were incomprehensible.
In the time it took the Windblown to ride three miles, the Yunkaii had fallen two-and-a-half
miles behind. A pack of stinking yellow fools, Beans complained. They still aint managed to puzzle
out why the Stormcrows and the Second Sons went over to the dragon queen.

For gold, they believe, said Books. Why do you think theyre paying us so well?
Gold is sweet, but life is sweeter, said Beans. We were dancing with cripples at Astapor. Do
you want to face real Unsullied with that lot on your side?
We fought the Unsullied at Astapor, the big man said. I said real Unsullied. Hacking off some
boys stones with a butchers cleaver and handing him a pointy hat dont make him Unsullied. That
dragon queens got the real item, the kind that dont break and run when you fart in their general
direction.
Them, and dragons too. Dick Straw glanced up at the sky as if he thought the mere mention of
dragons might be enough to bring them down upon the company. Keep your swords sharp, boys, well
have us a real fight soon.
A real fight, thought Frog. The words stuck in his craw. The fight beneath the walls of Astapor
had seemed real enough to him, though he knew the sellswords felt otherwise. That was butchery, not
battle, the warrior bard Denzo Dhan had been heard to declare afterward. Denzo was a captain, and
veteran of a hundred battles. Frogs experience was limited to practice yard and tourney ground, so he
did not think it was his place to dispute the verdict of such a seasoned warrior.
It seemed like a battle when it first began, though. He remembered how his gut had clenched
when he was kicked awake at dawn with the big man looming over him. Into your armor, slugabed,
hed boomed. The Butchers coming out to give us battle. Up, unless you mean to be his meat.
The Butcher King is dead, Frog had protested sleepily. That was the story all of them had
heard as they scrambled from the ships that had brought them from Old Volantis. A second King Cleon
had taken the crown and died in turn, supposedly, and now the Astapori were ruled by a whore and a
mad barber whose followers were fighting with each other to control the city.
Maybe they lied, the big man had replied. Or else this is some other butcher. Might be the
first one come back screaming from his tomb to kill some Yunkishmen. Makes no bloody matter, Frog.
Get your armor on. The tent slept ten, and all of them had been on their feet by then, wriggling into
breeches and boots, sliding long coats of ringmail down onto their shoulders, buckling breastplates,
tightening the straps on greaves or vambraces, grabbing for helms and shields and sword belts. Gerris,
quick as ever, was the first one fully clad, Arch close behind him. Together they helped Quentyn don his
own harness.
Three hundred yards away, Astapors new Unsullied had been pouring through their gates and
forming up in ranks beneath their citys crumbling red brick walls, dawn light glinting off their spiked
bronze helmets and the points of their long spears.
The three Dornishmen spilled from the tent together to join the fighters sprinting for the horse
lines. Battle. Quentyn had trained with spear and sword and shield since he was old enough to walk, but
that meant nothing now. Warrior, make me brave, Frog had prayed, as drums beat in the distance,
BOOM boom BOOM boom BOOM boom. The big man pointed out the Butcher King to him, sitting stiff

and tall upon an armored horse in a suit of copper scale that flashed brilliantly in the morning sun. He
remembered Gerris sidling up just before the fight began. Stay close to Arch, whatever happens.
Remember, youre the only one of us who can get the girl. By then the Astapori were advancing.
Dead or alive, the Butcher King still took the Wise Masters unawares. The Yunkishmen were still
running about in fluttering tokars trying to get their half-trained slave soldiers into some semblance of
order as Unsullied spears came crashing through their siege lines. If not for their allies and their
despised hirelings they might well have been overwhelmed, but the Windblown and the Company of the
Cat were ahorse in minutes and came thundering down on the Astapori flanks even as a legion from
New Ghis pushed through the Yunkish camp from the other side and met the Unsullied spear to spear
and shield to shield.
The rest was butchery, but this time it was the Butcher King on the wrong end of the cleaver.
Caggo was the one who finally cut him down, fighting through the kings protectors on his monstrous
warhorse and opening Cleon the Great from shoulder to hip with one blow of his curved Valyrian arakh.
Frog did not see it, but those who did claimed Cleons copper armor rent like silk, and from within came
an awful stench and a hundred wriggling grave worms. Cleon had been dead after all. The desperate
Astapori had pulled him from his tomb, clapped him into armor, and tied him onto a horse in hopes of
giving heart to their Unsullied.
Dead Cleons fall wrote an end to that. The new Unsullied threw down their spears and shields
and ran, only to find the gates of Astapor shut behind them. Frog had done his part in the slaughter that
followed, riding down the frightened eunuchs with the other Windblown. Hard by the big mans hip he
rode, slashing right and left as their wedge went through the Unsullied like a spearpoint. When they
burst through on the other side, the Tattered Prince had wheeled them round and led them through
again. It was only coming back that Frog got a good look at the faces beneath the spiked bronze caps
and realized that most were no older than he. Green boys screaming for their mothers, hed thought, but
he killed them all the same. By the time hed left the field, his sword was running red with blood and his
arm was so tired he could hardly lift it.
Yet that was no real fight, he thought. The real fight will be on us soon, and we must be away
before it comes, or well find ourselves fighting on the wrong side.
That night the Windblown made camp beside the shore of Slavers Bay. Frog drew the first
watch and was sent to guard the horse lines. Gerris met him there just after sundown, as a half-moon
shone upon the waters.
The big man should be here as well, said Quentyn. Hes gone to look up Old Bill Bone and lose
the rest of his silver, Gerris said. Leave him out of this. Hell do as we say, though he wont like it
much.
No. There was much and more about this Quentyn did not like himself. Sailing on an
overcrowded ship tossed by wind and sea, eating hard-bread crawling with weevils and drinking black
tar rum to sweet oblivion, sleeping on piles of moldy straw with the stench of strangers in his nostrils 

all that he had expected when he made his mark on that scrap of parchment in Volantis, pledging the
Tattered Prince his sword and service for a year. Those were hardships to be endured, the stuff of all
adventures.
But what must come next was plain betrayal. The Yunkaii had brought them from Old Volantis
to fight for the Yellow City, but now the Dornishmen meant to turn their cloaks and go over to the other
side. That meant abandoning their new brothers-in-arms as well. The Windblown were not the sort of
companions Quentyn would have chosen, but he had crossed the sea with them, shared their meat and
mead, fought beside them, traded tales with those few whose talk he understood. And if all his tales
were lies, well, that was the cost of passage to Meereen.
It is not what youd call honorable, Gerris had warned them, back at the Merchants House.
Daenerys may be halfway to Yunkai by now, with an army at her back, Quentyn said as they
walked amongst the horses.
She may be, Gerris said, but shes not. Weve heard such talk before. The Astapori were
convinced Daenerys was coming south with her dragons to break the siege. She didnt come then, and
shes not coming now.
We cant know that, not for certain. We need to steal away before we end up fighting the
woman I was sent to woo.
Wait till Yunkai. Gerris gestured at the hills. These lands belong to the Yunkaii. No one is like
to want to feed or shelter three deserters. North of Yunkai, thats no-mans-land.
He was not wrong. Even so, Quentyn felt uneasy. The big mans made too many friends. He
knows the plan was always to steal off and make our way to Daenerys, but hes not going to feel good
about abandoning men hes fought with. If we wait too long, its going to feel as if were deserting them
on the eve of battle. He will never do that. You know him as well as I do.
Its desertion whenever we do it, argued Gerris, and the Tattered Prince takes a dim view of
deserters. Hell send hunters after us, and Seven save us if they catch us. If were lucky, theyll just chop
off a foot to make sure we never run again. If were unlucky, theyll give us to Pretty Meris.
That last gave Quentyn pause. Pretty Meris frightened him. A Westerosi woman, but taller than
he was, just a thumb under six feet. After twenty years amongst the free companies, there was nothing
pretty about her, inside or out.
Gerris took him by the arm. Wait. A few more days, thats all. We have crossed half the world,
be patient for a few more leagues. Somewhere north of Yunkai our chance will come.
If you say, said Frog doubtfully   but for once the gods were listening, and their chance
came much sooner than that.

It was two days later. Hugh Hungerford reined up by their cookfire, and said, Dornish. Youre
wanted in the command tent.
Which one of us? asked Gerris. Were all Dornish.
All of you, then. Sour and saturnine, with a maimed hand, Hungerford had been company
paymaster for a time, until the Tattered Prince had caught him stealing from the coffers and removed
three of his fingers. Now he was just a serjeant.
What could this be? Up to now, Frog had no notion that their commander knew he was alive.
Hungerford had already ridden off, however, so there was no time for questions. All they could do was
gather up the big man and report as ordered. Admit to nothing and be prepared to fight, Quentyn told
his friends.
I am always prepared to fight, said the big man.
The great grey sailcloth pavilion that the Tattered Prince liked to call his canvas castle was
crowded when the Dornishmen arrived. It took Quentyn only a moment to realize that most of those
assembled were from the Seven Kingdoms, or boasted Westerosi blood. Exiles or the sons of exiles. Dick
Straw claimed there were three score Westerosi in the company; a good third of those were here,
including Dick himself, Hugh Hungerford, Pretty Meris, and golden-haired Lewis Lanster, the companys
best archer.
Denzo Dhan was there as well, with Caggo huge beside him. Caggo Corpsekiller the men were
calling him now, though not to his face; he was quick to anger, and that curved black sword of his was as
nasty as its owner. There were hundreds of Valyrian longswords in the world, but only a handful of
Valyrian arakhs. Neither Caggo nor Dhan was Westerosi, but both were captains and stood high in the
Tattered Princes regard. His right arm and his left. Something major is afoot.
It was the Tattered Prince himself who did the speaking. Orders have come down from
Yurkhaz, he said. What Astapori still survive have come creeping from their hidey-holes, it seems.
Theres nothing left in Astapor but corpses, so theyre pouring out into the countryside, hundreds of
them, maybe thousands, all starved and sick. The Yunkaii dont want them near their Yellow City. Weve
been commanded to hunt them down and turn them, drive them back to Astapor or north to Meereen.
If the dragon queen wants to take them in, shes welcome to them. Half of them have the bloody flux,
and even the healthy ones are mouths to feed.
Yunkai is closer than Meereen, Hugh Hungerford objected. What if they wont turn, my
lord?
Thats why you have swords and lances, Hugh. Though bows might serve you better. Stay well
away from those who show signs of the flux. Im sending half our strength into the hills. Fifty patrols,
twenty riders each. Bloodbeards got the same orders, so the Cats will be in the field as well.

A look passed between the men, and a few muttered under their breath. Though the
Windblown and the Company of the Cat were both under contract to Yunkai, a year ago in the Disputed
Lands they had been on opposite sides of the battle lines, and bad blood still lingered. Bloodbeard, the
savage commander of the Cats, was a roaring giant with a ferocious appetite for slaughter who made no
secret of his disdain for old grey-beards in rags.
Dick Straw cleared his throat. Begging your pardon, but were all Seven Kingdoms born here.
Mlord never broke up the company by blood or tongue before. Why send us lot together?
A fair question. Youre to ride east, deep into the hills, then swing wide about Yunkai, making
for Meereen. Should you come on any Astapori, drive them north or kill them  but know that is not the
purpose of your mission. Beyond the Yellow City, youre like to come up against the dragon queens
patrols. Second Sons or Stormcrows. Either will serve. Go over to them.
Go over to them? said the bastard knight, Ser Orson Stone. Youd have us turn our cloaks?
I would, said the Tattered Prince.
Quentyn Martell almost laughed aloud. The gods are mad.
The Westerosi shifted uneasily. Some stared into their wine cups, as if they hoped to find some
wisdom there. Hugh Hungerford frowned. You think Queen Daenerys will take us in 
I do.
 but if she does, what then? Are we spies? Assassins? Envoys? Are you thinking to change
sides?
Caggo scowled. That is for the prince to decide, Hungerford. Your part is to do as you are told.
Always. Hungerford raised his two-fingered hand. Let us be frank, said Denzo Dhan, the
warrior bard. The Yunkaii do not inspire confidence. Whatever the outcome of this war, the
Wind-blown should share in the spoils of victory. Our prince is wise to keep all roads open.
Meris will command you, said the Tattered Prince. She knows my mind in this  and
Daenerys Targaryen may be more accepting of another woman.
Quentyn glanced back to Pretty Meris. When her cold dead eyes met his, he felt a shiver. I do
not like this.
Dick Straw still had doubts as well. The girl would be a fool to trust us. Even with Meris.
Especially with Meris. Hell, I dont trust Meris, and Ive fucked her a few times. He grinned, but no one
laughed. Least of all Pretty Meris.
I think you are mistaken, Dick, the Tattered Prince said. You are all Westerosi. Friends from
home. You speak her same tongue, worship her same gods. As for motive, all of you have suffered
wrongs at my hands. Dick, Ive whipped you more than any man in the company, and you have the back

to prove it. Hugh lost three fingers to my discipline. Meris was raped half round the company. Not this
company, true, but we need not mention that. Will of the Woods, well, youre just filth. Ser Orson
blames me for dispatching his brother to the Sorrows and Ser Lucifer is still seething about that slave girl
Caggo took from him.
He could have given her back when hed had her, Lucifer Long complained. He had no cause
to kill her.
She was ugly, said Caggo. Thats cause enough.
The Tattered Prince went on as if no one had spoken. Webber, you nurse claims to lands lost in
Westeros. Lanster, I killed that boy you were so fond of. You Dornish three, you think we lied to you. The
plunder from Astapor was much less than you were promised in Volantis, and I took the lions share of
it.
The last parts true, Ser Orson said. The best ruses always have some seed of truth, said the
Tattered Prince. Every one of you has ample reason for wanting to abandon me. And Daenerys
Targaryen knows that sellswords are a fickle lot. Her own Second Sons and Stormcrows took Yunkish
gold but did not hesitate to join her when the tide of battle began to flow her way.
When should we leave? asked Lewis Lanster. At once. Be wary of the Cats and any Long
Lances you may encounter. No one will know your defection is a ruse but those of us in this tent. Turn
your tiles too soon, and you will be maimed as deserters or disemboweled as turncloaks.
The three Dornishmen were silent as they left the command tent. Twenty riders, all speaking the
Common Tongue, thought Quentyn. Whispering has just gotten a deal more dangerous.
The big man slapped him hard across the back. So. This is sweet, Frog. A dragon hunt.
THE WAYWARD BRIDE
Asha Greyjoy was seated in Galbart Glovers longhall drinking Galbart Glovers wine when
Galbart Glovers maester brought the letter to her.
My lady. The maesters voice was anxious, as it always was when he spoke to her. A bird from
Barrowton. He thrust the parchment at her as if he could not wait to be rid of it. It was tightly rolled
and sealed with a button of hard pink wax.
Barrowton. Asha tried to recall who ruled in Barrowton. Some northern lord, no friend of mine.
And that seal  the Boltons of the Dreadfort went into battle beneath pink banners spattered with little
drops of blood. It only stood to reason that they would use pink sealing wax as well.

This is poison that I hold, she thought. I ought to burn it. Instead she cracked the seal. A scrap of
leather fluttered down into her lap. When she read the dry brown words, her black mood grew blacker
still. Dark wings, dark words. The ravens never brought glad tidings. The last message sent to Deepwood
had been from Stannis Baratheon, demanding homage. This was worse. The northmen have taken
Moat Cailin.
The Bastard of Bolton? asked Qarl, beside her. Ramsay Bolton, Lord of Winterfell, he signs
himself. But there are other names as well. Lady Dustin, Lady Cerwyn, and four Ryswells had appended
their own signatures beneath his. Beside them was drawn a crude giant, the mark of some Umber.
Those were done in maesters ink, made of soot and coal tar, but the message above was
scrawled in brown in a huge, spiky hand. It spoke of the fall of Moat Cailin, of the triumphant return of
the Warden of the North to his domains, of a marriage soon to be made. The first words were, I write
this letter in the blood of ironmen, the last, I send you each a piece of prince. Linger in my lands, and
share his fate.
Asha had believed her little brother dead. Better dead than this. The scrap of skin had fallen into
her lap. She held it to the candle and watched the smoke curl up, until the last of it had been consumed
and the flame was licking at her fingers.
Galbart Glovers maester hovered expectantly at her elbow. There will be no answer, she
informed him.
May I share these tidings with Lady Sybelle?
If it please you. Whether Sybelle Glover would find any joy in the fall of Moat Cailin, Asha
could not say. Lady Sybelle all but lived in her gods-wood, praying for her children and her husbands
safe return. Another prayer like to go unanswered. Her heart tree is as deaf and blind as our Drowned
God. Robett Glover and his brother Galbart had ridden south with the Young Wolf. If the tales they had
heard of the Red Wedding were even half-true, they were not like to ride north again. Her children are
alive, at least, and that is thanks to me. Asha had left them at Ten Towers in the care of her aunts. Lady
Sybelles infant daughter was still on the breast, and she had judged the girl too delicate to expose to
the rigors of another stormy crossing. Asha shoved the letter into the maesters hands. Here. Let her
find some solace here if she can. You have my leave to go.
The maester inclined his head and departed. After he was gone, Tris Botley turned to Asha. If
Moat Cailin has fallen, Torrhens Square will soon follow. Then it will be our turn.
Not for a while yet. The Cleftjaw will make them bleed. Torrhens Square was not a ruin like
Moat Cailin, and Dagmer was iron to the bone. He would die before hed yield.
If my father still lived, Moat Cailin would never have fallen. Balon Greyjoy had known that the
Moat was the key to holding the north. Euron knew that as well; he simply did not care. No more than
he cared what happened to Deepwood Motte or Torrhens Square. Euron has no interest in Balons
conquests. My nuncles off chasing dragons. The Crows Eye had summoned all the strength of the Iron

Isles to Old Wyk and sailed out into the deepness of the Sunset Sea, with his brother Victarion following
behind like a whipped cur. There was no one left on Pyke to appeal to, save for her own lord husband.
We stand alone.
Dagmer will smash them, insisted Cromm, who had never met a woman he loved half so much
as battle. They are only wolves.
The wolves are all slain. Asha picked at the pink wax with her thumb-nail. These are the
skinners who slew them.
We should go to Torrhens Square and join the fight, urged Quenton Greyjoy, a distant cousin
and captain of the Salty Wench.
Aye, said Dagon Greyjoy, a cousin still more distant. Dagon the Drunkard, men called him, but
drunk or sober he loved to fight. Why should the Cleftjaw have all the glory for himself?
Two of Galbart Glovers serving men brought forth the roast, but that strip of skin had taken
Ashas appetite. My men have given up all hope of victory, she realized glumly. All they look for now is a
good death. The wolves would give them that, she had no doubt. Soon or late, they will come to take
this castle back.
The sun was sinking behind the tall pines of the wolfswood as Asha climbed the wooden steps to
the bedchamber that had once been Galbart Glovers. She had drunk too much wine and her head was
pounding. Asha Greyjoy loved her men, captains and crew alike, but half of them were fools. Brave fools,
but fools nonetheless. Go to the Cleftjaw, yes, as if we could 
Between Deepwood and Dagmer lay long leagues, rugged hills, thick woods, wild rivers, and
more northmen than she cared to contemplate. Asha had four longships and not quite two hundred
men  including Tristifer Botley, who could not be relied on. For all his talk of love, she could not
imagine Tris rushing off to Torrhens Square to die with Dagmer Cleftjaw.
Qarl followed her up to Galbart Glovers bedchamber. Get out, she told him. I want to be
alone.
What you want is me. He tried to kiss her.
Asha pushed him away. Touch me again and Ill
What? He drew his dagger. Undress yourself, girl.
Fuck yourself, you beardless boy.
Id sooner fuck you. One quick slash unlaced her jerkin. Asha reached for her axe, but Qarl
dropped his knife and caught her wrist, twisting back her arm until the weapon fell from her fingers. He
pushed her back onto Glovers bed, kissed her hard, and tore off her tunic to let her breasts spill out.

When she tried to knee him in the groin, he twisted away and forced her legs apart with his knees. Ill
have you now.
Do it, she spat, and Ill kill you in your sleep.
She was sopping wet when he entered her. Damn you, she said. Damn you damn you damn
you. He sucked her nipples till she cried out half in pain and half in pleasure. Her cunt became the
world. She forgot Moat Cailin and Ramsay Bolton and his little piece of skin, forgot the kingsmoot, forgot
her failure, forgot her exile and her enemies and her husband. Only his hands mattered, only his mouth,
only his arms around her, his cock inside her. He fucked her till she screamed, and then again until she
wept, before he finally spent his seed inside her womb.
I am a woman wed, she reminded him, afterward. Youve despoiled me, you beardless boy.
My lord husband will cut your balls off and put you in a dress.
Qarl rolled off her. If he can get out of his chair.
The room was cold. Asha rose from Galbart Glovers bed and took off her torn clothes. The
jerkin would need fresh laces, but her tunic was ruined. I never liked it anyway. She tossed it on the
flames. The rest she left in a puddle by the bed. Her breasts were sore, and Qarls seed was trickling
down her thigh. She would need to brew some moon tea or risk bringing another kraken into the world.
What does it matter? My fathers dead, my mothers dying, my brothers being flayed, and theres
naught that I can do about any of it. And Im married. Wedded and bedded  though not by the same
man.
When she slipped back beneath the furs, Qarl was asleep. Now your life is mine. Where did I
put my dagger? Asha pressed herself against his back and slid her arms about him. On the isles he was
known as Qarl the Maid, in part to distinguish him from Qarl Shepherd, Queer Qarl Kenning, Qarl
Quickaxe, and Qarl the Thrall, but more for his smooth cheeks. When Asha had first met him, Qarl had
been trying to raise a beard. Peach fuzz, she had called it, laughing. Qarl confessed that he had never
seen a peach, so she told him he must join her on her next voyage south.
It had still been summer then; Robert sat the Iron Throne, Balon brooded on the Seastone Chair,
and the Seven Kingdoms were at peace. Asha sailed the Black Wind down the coast, trading. They called
at Fair Isle and Lannisport and a score of smaller ports before reaching the Arbor, where the peaches
were always huge and sweet. You see, shed said, the first time shed held one up against Qarls cheek.
When she made him try a bite, the juice ran down his chin, and she had to kiss it clean.
That night theyd spent devouring peaches and each other, and by the time daylight returned
Asha was sated and sticky and as happy as shed ever been. Was that six years ago, or seven? Summer
was a fading memory, and it had been three years since Asha last enjoyed a peach. She still enjoyed
Qarl, though. The captains and the kings might not have wanted her, but he did.
Asha had known other lovers; some shared her bed for half a year, some for half a night. Qarl
pleased her more than all the rest together. He might shave but once a fortnight, but a shaggy beard

does not make a man. She liked the feel of his smooth, soft skin beneath her fingers. She liked the way
his long, straight hair brushed against his shoulders. She liked the way he kissed. She liked how he
grinned when she brushed her thumbs across his nipples. The hair between his legs was a darker shade
of sand than the hair on his head, but fine as down compared to the coarse black bush around her own
sex. She liked that too. He had a swimmers body, long and lean, with not a scar upon him.
A shy smile, strong arms, clever fingers, and two sure swords. What more could any woman
want? She would have married Qarl, and gladly, but she was Lord Balons daughter and he was
common-born, the grandson of a thrall. Too lowborn for me to wed, but not too low for me to suck his
cock. Drunk, smiling, she crawled beneath the furs and took him in her mouth. Qarl stirred in his sleep,
and after a moment he began to stiffen. By the time she had him hard again, he was awake and she was
wet. Asha draped the furs across her bare shoulders and mounted him, drawing him so deep inside her
that she could not tell who had the cock and who the cunt. This time the two of them reached their
peak together.
My sweet lady, he murmured after, in a voice still thick with sleep. My sweet queen.
No, Asha thought, I am no queen, nor shall I ever be. Go back to sleep. She kissed his cheek,
padded across Galbart Glovers bedchamber, and threw the shutters open. The moon was almost full,
the night so clear that she could see the mountains, their peaks crowned with snow. Cold and bleak and
inhospitable, but beautiful in the moonlight. Their summits glimmered pale and jagged as a row of
sharpened teeth. The foothills and the smaller peaks were lost in shadow.
The sea was closer, only five leagues north, but Asha could not see it. Too many hills stood in the
way. And trees, so many trees. The wolfswood, the northmen named the forest. Most nights you could
hear the wolves, calling to each other through the dark. An ocean of leaves. Would it were an ocean of
water.
Deepwood might be closer to the sea than Winterfell, but it was still too far for her taste. The air
smelled of pines instead of salt. Northeast of those grim grey mountains stood the Wall, where Stannis
Baratheon had raised his standards. The enemy of my enemy is my friend, men said, but the other side
of that coin was, the enemy of my friend is my enemy. The ironborn were the enemies of the northern
lords this Baratheon pretender needed desperately. I could offer him my fair young body, she thought,
pushing a strand of hair from her eyes, but Stannis was wed and so was she, and he and the ironborn
were old foes. During her fathers first rebellion, Stannis had smashed the Iron Fleet off Fair Isle and
subdued Great Wyk in his brothers name.
Deepwoods mossy walls enclosed a wide, rounded hill with a flattened top, crowned by a
cavernous longhall with a watchtower at one end, rising fifty feet above the hill. Beneath the hill was the
bailey, with its stables, paddock, smithy, well, and sheepfold, defended by a deep ditch, a sloping
earthen dike, and a palisade of logs. The outer defenses made an oval, following the contours of the
land. There were two gates, each protected by a pair of square wooden towers, and wallwalks around
the perimeter. On the south side of the castle, moss grew thick upon the palisade and crept halfway up
the towers. To east and west were empty fields. Oats and barley had been growing there when Asha

took the castle, only to be crushed underfoot during her attack. A series of hard frosts had killed the
crops theyd planted afterward, leaving only mud and ash and wilted, rotting stalks.
It was an old castle, but not a strong one. She had taken it from the Glovers, and the Bastard of
Bolton would take it from her. He would not flay her, though. Asha Greyjoy did not intend to be taken
alive. She would die as she had lived, with an axe in her hand and a laugh upon her lips.
Her lord father had given her thirty longships to capture Deepwood. Four remained, counting
her own Black Wind, and one of those belonged to Tris Botley, who had joined her when all her other
men were fleeing. No. That is not just. They sailed home to do homage to their king. If anyone fled, it
was me. The memory still shamed her.
Go, the Reader had urged, as the captains were bearing her uncle Euron down Naggas hill to
don his driftwood crown.
Said the raven to the crow. Come with me. I need you to raise the men of Harlaw. Back then,
shed meant to fight.
The men of Harlaw are here. The ones who count. Some were shouting Eurons name. I will not
set Harlaw against Harlaw.
Eurons mad. And dangerous. That hellhorn 
I heard it. Go, Asha. Once Euron has been crowned, hell look for you. You dare not let his eye
fall upon you.
If I stand with my other uncles 
 you will die outcast, with every hand against you. When you put your name before the
captains you submitted yourself to their judgment. You cannot go against that judgment now. Only once
has the choice of a kingsmoot been overthrown. Read Haereg.
Only Rodrik the Reader would talk of some old book whilst their lives were balanced on a
swords edge. If you are staying, so am I, she told him stubbornly.
Dont be a fool. Euron shows the world his smiling eye tonight, but come the morrow  Asha,
you are Balons daughter, and your claim is stronger than his own. So long as you draw breath you
remain a danger to him. If you stay, you will be killed or wed to the Red Oarsman. I dont know which
would be worse. Go. You will not have another chance.
Asha had landed Black Wind on the far side of the island for just such an eventuality. Old Wyk
was not large. She could be back aboard her ship before the sun came up, on her way to Harlaw before
Euron realized she was missing. Yet she hesitated until her uncle said, Do it for the love you bear me,
child. Do not make me watch you die.

So she went. To Ten Towers first, to bid farewell to her mother. It may be a long while before I
come again, Asha warned her. Lady Alannys had not understood. Where is Theon? she asked.
Where is my baby boy? Lady Gwynesse only wanted to know when Lord Rodrik would return. I am
seven years his elder. Ten Towers should be mine.
Asha was still at Ten Towers taking on provisions when the tidings of her marriage reached her.
My wayward niece needs taming, the Crows Eye was reported to have said, and I know the man to
tame her. He had married her to Erik Ironmaker and named the Anvil-Breaker to rule the Iron Islands
whilst he was chasing dragons. Erik had been a great man in his day, a fearless reaver who could boast
of having sailed with her grand-sires grandsire, that same Dagon Greyjoy whom Dagon the Drunkard
had been named for. Old women on Fair Isle still frightened their grandchildren with tales of Lord Dagon
and his men. I wounded Erics pride at the kingsmoot, Asha reflected. He is not like to forget that.
She had to pay her nuncle his just due. With one stroke, Euron had turned a rival into a
supporter, secured the isles in his absence, and removed Asha as a threat. And enjoyed a good belly
laugh too. Tris Botley said that the Crows Eye had used a seal to stand in for her at her wedding. I hope
Erik did not insist on a consummation, shed said.
I cannot go home, she thought, but I dare not stay here much longer. The quiet of the woods
unnerved her. Asha had spent her life on islands and on ships. The sea was never silent. The sound of
the waves washing against a rocky shore was in her blood, but there were no waves at Deepwood Motte
 only the trees, the endless trees, soldier pines and sentinels, beech and ash and ancient oaks,
chestnut trees and ironwoods and firs. The sound they made was softer than the sea, and she heard it
only when the wind was blowing; then the sighing seemed to come from all around her, as if the trees
were whispering to one another in some language that she could not understand.
Tonight the whispering seemed louder than before. A rush of dead brown leaves, Asha told
herself, bare branches creaking in the wind. She turned away from the window, away from the woods. I
need a deck beneath my feet again. Or failing that, some food in my belly. Shed had too much wine
tonight, but too little bread and none of that great bloody roast.
The moonlight was bright enough to find her clothes. She donned thick black breeches, a quilted
tunic, and a green leather jerkin covered with overlapping plates of steel. Leaving Qarl to his dreams,
she padded down the keeps exterior stair, the steps creaking under her bare feet. One of the men
walking sentry on the walls spied her making her descent and lifted his spear to her. Asha whistled back
at him. As she crossed the inner yard to the kitchens, Galbart Glovers dogs began to bark. Good, she
thought. That will drown out the sound of the trees.
She was cutting a wedge of yellow cheese from a round as big as a cart wheel when Tris Botley
stepped into the kitchen, bundled up in a thick fur cloak. My queen.
Dont mock me.
You will always rule my heart. No amount of fools shouting at a kingsmoot can change that.

What am I to do with this boy? Asha could not doubt his devotion. Not only had he stood her
champion on Naggas hill and shouted out her name, but he had even crossed the sea to join her
afterward, abandoning his king and kin and home. Not that he dared defy Euron to his face. When the
Crows Eye took the fleet to sea Tris had simply lagged behind, changing course only when the other
ships were lost to sight. Even that took a certain courage, though; he could never return to the isles.
Cheese? she asked him. Theres ham as well, and mustard.
Its not food I want, my lady. You know that. Tris had grown himself a thick brown beard at
Deepwood. He claimed it helped to keep his face warm. I saw you from the watchtower.
If you have the watch, what are you doing here?
Cromms up there, and Hagen the Horn. How many eyes do we need to watch leaves rustle in
the moonlight? We need to talk.
Again? She sighed. You know Hagens daughter, the one with the red hair. She steers a ship
as well as any man and has a pretty face. Seventeen, and Ive seen her looking at you.
I dont want Hagens daughter. He almost touched her before thinking better of it. Asha, it is
time to go. Moat Cailin was the only thing holding back the tide. If we remain here, the northmen will
kill us all, you know that.
Would you have me run?
I would have you live. I love you.
No, she thought, you love some innocent maiden who lives only in your head, a frightened child
in need of your protection. I do not love you, she said bluntly, and I do not run.
Whats here that you should hold so tight to it but pine and mud and foes? We have our ships.
Sail away with me, and well make new lives upon the sea.
As pirates? It was almost tempting. Let the wolves have back their gloomy woods and retake
the open sea.
As traders, he insisted. Well voyage east as the Crows Eye did, but well come back with silks
and spices instead of a dragons horn. One voyage to the Jade Sea and well be as rich as gods. We can
have a manse in Oldtown or one of the Free Cities.
You and me and Qarl? She saw him flinch at the mention of Qarls name. Hagens girl might
like to sail the Jade Sea with you. I am still the krakens daughter. My place is
where? You cannot return to the isles. Not unless you mean to submit to your lord husband.
Asha tried to picture herself abed with Erik Ironmaker, crushed beneath his bulk, suffering his
embraces. Better him than the Red Oarsman or Left-Hand Lucas Codd. The Anvil-Breaker had once been
a roaring giant, fearsomely strong, fiercely loyal, utterly without fear. It might not be so bad. Hes like to

die the first time he tries to do his duty as a husband. That would make her Eriks widow instead of Eriks
wife, which could be better or a good deal worse, depending on his grandsons. And my nuncle. In the
end, all the winds blow me back toward Euron. I have hostages, on Harlaw, she reminded him. And
there is still Sea Dragon Point  if I cannot have my fathers kingdom, why not make one of my own?
Sea Dragon Point had not always been as thinly peopled as it was now. Old ruins could still be found
amongst its hills and bogs, the remains of ancient strongholds of the First Men. In the high places, there
were weir-wood circles left by the children of the forest.
You are clinging to Sea Dragon Point the way a drowning man clings to a bit of wreckage. What
does Sea Dragon have that anyone could ever want? There are no mines, no gold, no silver, not even tin
or iron. The land is too wet for wheat or corn.
I do not plan on planting wheat or corn. Whats there? Ill tell you. Two long coastlines, a
hundred hidden coves, otters in the lakes, salmon in the rivers, clams along the shore, colonies of seals
offshore, tall pines for building ships.
Who will build these ships, my queen? Where will Your Grace find subjects for her kingdom if
the northmen let you have it? Or do you mean to rule over a realm of seals and otters?
She gave a rueful laugh. Otters might be easier to rule than men, I grant you. And seals are
smarter. No, you may be right. My best course may still be to return to Pyke. There are those on Harlaw
who would welcome my return. On Pyke as well. And Euron won no friends on Black-tyde when he slew
Lord Baelor. I could find my nuncle Aeron, raise the isles. No one had seen the Damphair since the
kingsmoot, but his Drowned Men claimed he was hiding on Great Wyk and would soon come forth to
call down the wroth of the Drowned God on the Crows Eye and his minions.
The Anvil-Breaker is searching for the Damphair too. He is hunting down the Drowned Men.
Blind Beron Blacktyde was taken and put to the question. Even the Old Grey Gull was given shackles.
How will you find the priest when all of Eurons men cannot?
He is my blood. My fathers brother. It was a feeble answer, and Asha knew it.
Do you know what I think?
I am about to, I suspect.
I think the Damphairs dead. I think the Crows Eye slit his throat for him. Ironmakers search is
just to make us believe the priest escaped. Euron is afraid to be seen as a kinslayer.
Never let my nuncle hear you say that. Tell the Crows Eye hes afraid of kinslaying, and hell
murder one of his own sons just to prove you wrong. Asha was feeling almost sober by then. Tristifer
Botley had that effect on her.

Even if you did find your uncle Damphair, the two of you would fail. You were both part of the
kingsmoot, so you cannot say it was unlawful called, as Torgon did. You are bound to its decision by all
the laws of gods and men. You
Asha frowned. Wait. Torgon? Which Torgon?
Torgon the Latecomer.
He was a king during the Age of Heroes. She recalled that much about him, but little else.
What of him?
Torgon Greyiron was the kings eldest son. But the king was old and Torgon restless, so it
happened that when his father died he was raiding along the Mander from his stronghold on Greyshield.
His brothers sent no word to him but instead quickly called a kingsmoot, thinking that one of them
would be chosen to wear the driftwood crown. But the captains and the kings chose Urragon
Goodbrother to rule instead. The first thing the new king did was command that all the sons of the old
king be put to death, and so they were. After that men called him Badbrother, though in truth theyd
been no kin of his. He ruled for almost two years.
Asha remembered now. Torgon came home 
 and said the kingsmoot was unlawful since he had not been there to make his claim.
Badbrother had proved to be as mean as he was cruel and had few friends left upon the isles. The
priests denounced him, the lords rose against him, and his own captains hacked him into pieces. Torgon
the Latecomer became the king and ruled for forty years.
Asha took Tris Botley by the ears and kissed him full upon the lips. He was red and breathless by
the time she let him go. What was that? he said.
A kiss, its called. Drown me for a fool, Tris, I should have remembered She broke off
suddenly. When Tris tried to speak, she shushed him, listening. Thats a warhorn. Hagen. Her first
thought was of her husband. Could Erik Ironmaker have come all this way to claim his wayward wife?
The Drowned God loves me after all. Here I was wondering what to do, and he has sent me foes to
fight. Asha got to her feet and slammed her knife back into its sheath. The battles come to us.
She was trotting by the time she reached the castle bailey, with Tris dogging her heels, but even
so she came too late. The fight was done. Asha found two northmen bleeding by the eastern wall not far
from the postern gate, with Lorren Longaxe, Six-Toed Harl, and Grimtongue standing over them.
Cromm and Hagen saw them coming over the wall, Grimtongue explained.
Just these two? asked Asha. Five. We killed two before they could get over, and Harl slew
another on the wallwalk. These two made it to the yard.
One man was dead, his blood and brains crusting Lorrens longaxe, but the second was still
breathing raggedly, though Grimtongues spear had pinned him to the ground in a spreading pool of

blood. Both were clad in boiled leather and mottled cloaks of brown and green and black, with
branches, leaves, and brush sewn about their heads and shoulders.
Who are you? Asha asked the wounded man. A Flint. Who are you?
Asha of House Greyjoy. This is my castle.
Deepwood be Galbart Glovers seat. No home for squids.
Are there any more of you? Asha demanded of him. When he did not answer, she seized
Grimtongues spear and turned it, and the northman cried out in anguish as more blood gushed from his
wound. What was your purpose here?
The lady, he said, shuddering. Gods, stop. We come for the lady. T rescue her. It was just us
five.
Asha looked into his eyes. When she saw the falsehood there, she leaned upon the spear,
twisting it. How many more? she said. Tell me, or Ill make your dying last until the dawn.
Many, he finally sobbed, between screams. Thousands. Three thousand, four  aieeee 
please 
She ripped the spear out of him and drove it down two-handed through his lying throat. Galbart
Glovers maester had claimed the mountain clans were too quarrelsome to ever band together without
a Stark to lead them. He might not have been lying. He might just have been wrong. She had learned
what that tasted like at her nuncles kingsmoot. These five were sent to open our gates before the
main attack, she said. Lorren, Harl, fetch me Lady Glover and her maester.
Whole or bloody? asked Lorren Longaxe. Whole and unharmed. Grimtongue, get up that
thrice-damned tower and tell Cromm and Hagen to keep a sharp eye out. If they see so much as a hare, I
want to know of it.
Deepwoods bailey was soon full of frightened people. Her own men were struggling into armor
or climbing up onto the wallwalks. Galbart Glovers folk looked on with fearful faces, whispering to one
another. Glovers steward had to be carried up from the cellar, having lost a leg when Asha took the
castle. The maester protested noisily until Lorren cracked him hard across the face with a mailed fist.
Lady Glover emerged from the godswood on the arm of her bedmaid. I warned you that this day would
come, my lady, she said, when she saw the corpses on the ground.
The maester pushed forward, with blood dripping from a broken nose. Lady Asha, I beg you,
strike your banners and let me bargain for your life. You have used us fairly, and with honor. I will tell
them so.
We will exchange you for the children. Sybelle Glovers eyes were red, from tears and
sleepless nights. Gawen is four now. I missed his nameday. And my sweet girl  give me back my
children, and no harm need come to you. Nor to your men.

The last part was a lie, Asha knew. She might be exchanged, perhaps, shipped back to the Iron
Islands to her husbands loving arms. Her cousins would be ransomed too, as would Tris Botley and a
few more of her company, those whose kin had coin enough to buy them back. For the rest it would be
the axe, the noose, or the Wall. Still, they have the right to choose.
Asha climbed on a barrel so all of them could see her. The wolves are coming down on us with
their teeth bared. They will be at our gates before the sun comes up. Shall we throw down our spears
and axes and plead with them to spare us?
No. Qarl the Maid drew his sword. No, echoed Lorren Longaxe. No, boomed Rolfe the
Dwarf, a bear of a man who stood a head taller than anyone else in her crew. Never. And Hagens horn
sounded again from on high, ringing out across the bailey.
AHooooooooooooooooooooooo, the warhorn cried, long and low, a sound to curdle blood. Asha
had begun to hate the sound of horns. On Old Wyk her uncles hellhorn had blown a death knell for her
dreams, and now Hagen was sounding what might well be her last hour on earth. If I must die, I will die
with an axe in my hand and a curse upon my lips.
To the walls, Asha Greyjoy told her men. She turned her own steps for the watchtower, with
Tris Botley right behind her.
The wooden watchtower was the tallest thing this side of the mountains, rising twenty feet
above the biggest sentinels and soldier pines in the surrounding woods. There, Captain, said Cromm,
when she made the platform. Asha saw only trees and shadows, the moonlit hills and the snowy peaks
beyond. Then she realized that trees were creeping closer. Oho, she laughed, these mountain goats
have cloaked themselves in pine boughs. The woods were on the move, creeping toward the castle like
a slow green tide. She thought back to a tale she had heard as a child, about the children of the forest
and their battles with the First Men, when the greenseers turned the trees to warriors.
We cannot fight so many, Tris Botley said. We can fight as many as come, pup, insisted
Cromm. The more there are, the more the glory. Men will sing of us.
Aye, but will they sing of your courage or my folly? The sea was five long leagues away. Would
they do better to stand and fight behind Deepwoods deep ditches and wooden walls? Deepwoods
wooden walls did the Glovers small good when I took their castle, she reminded herself. Why should they
serve me any better?
Come the morrow we will feast beneath the sea. Cromm stroked his axe as if he could not
wait.
Hagen lowered his horn. If we die with dry feet, how will we find our way to the Drowned
Gods watery halls?
These woods are full of little streams, Cromm assured him. All of them lead to rivers, and all
the rivers to the sea.

Asha was not ready to die, not here, not yet. A living man can find the sea more easily than a
dead one. Let the wolves keep their gloomy woods. We are making for the ships.
She wondered who was in command of her foes. If it were me, I would take the strand and put
our longships to the torch before attacking Deepwood. The wolves would not find that easy, though, not
without longships of their own. Asha never beached more than half her ships. The other half stood
safely off to sea, with orders to raise sail and make for Sea Dragon Point if the northmen took the
strand. Hagen, blow your horn and make the forest shake. Tris, don some mail, its time you tried out
that sweet sword of yours. When she saw how pale he was, she pinched his cheek. Splash some blood
upon the moon with me, and I promise you a kiss for every kill.
My queen, said Tristifer, here we have the walls, but if we reach the sea and find that the
wolves have taken our ships or driven them away 
 we die, she finished cheerfully, but at least well die with our feet wet. Ironborn fight
better with salt spray in their nostrils and the sound of the waves at their backs.
Hagen blew three short blasts in quick succession, the signal that would send the ironborn back
to their ships. From below came shouting, the clatter of spear and sword, the whinnying of horses. Too
few horses and too few riders. Asha headed for the stair. In the bailey, she found Qarl the Maid waiting
with her chestnut mare, her warhelm, and her throwing axes. Ironmen were leading horses from Galbart
Glovers stables.
A ram! a voice shouted down from the walls. They have a battering ram!
Which gate? asked Asha, mounting up. The north! From beyond Deepwoods mossy
wooden walls came the sudden sound of trumpets.
Trumpets? Wolves with trumpets? That was wrong, but Asha had no time to ponder it. Open
the south gate, she commanded, even as the north gate shook to the impact of the ram. She pulled a
short-hafted throwing axe from the belt across her shoulder. The hour of the owl has fled, my brothers.
Now comes the hour of the spear, the sword, the axe. Form up. Were going home.
From a hundred throats came roars of Home! and Asha! Tris Botley galloped up beside her
on a tall roan stallion. In the bailey, her men closed about each other, hefting shields and spears. Qarl
the Maid, no horse rider, took his place between Grimtongue and Lorren Longaxe. As Hagen came
scrambling down the watchtower steps, a wolflings arrow caught him in the belly and sent him plunging
headfirst to the ground. His daughter ran to him, wailing. Bring her, Asha commanded. This was no
time for mourning. Rolfe the Dwarf pulled the girl onto his horse, her red hair flying. Asha could hear the
north gate groaning as the ram slammed into it again. We may need to cut our way through them, she
thought, as the south gate swung wide before them. The way was clear. For how long?
Move out! Asha drove her heels into her horses flanks.

Men and mounts alike were trotting by the time they reached the trees on the far side of the
sodden field, where dead shoots of winter wheat rotted beneath the moon. Asha held her horsemen
back as a rear guard, to keep the stragglers moving and see that no one was left behind. Tall soldier
pines and gnarled old oaks closed in around them. Deepwood was aptly named. The trees were huge
and dark, somehow threatening. Their limbs wove through one another and creaked with every breath
of wind, and their higher branches scratched at the face of the moon. The sooner we are shut of here,
the better I will like it, Asha thought. The trees hate us all, deep in their wooden hearts.
They pressed on south and southwest, until the wooden towers of Deepwood Motte were lost
to sight and the sounds of trumpets had been swallowed by the woods. The wolves have their castle
back, she thought, perhaps they will be content to let us go.
Tris Botley trotted up beside her. We are going the wrong way, he said, gesturing at the moon
as it peered down through the canopy of branches. We need to turn north, for the ships.
West first, Asha insisted. West until the sun comes up. Then north. She turned to Rolfe the
Dwarf and Roggon Rustbeard, her best riders. Scout ahead and make sure our way is clear. I want no
surprises when we reach the shore. If you come on wolves, ride back to me with word.
If we must, promised Roggon through his huge red beard.
After the scouts had vanished into the trees, the rest of the ironborn resumed their march, but
the going was slow. The trees hid the moon and stars from them, and the forest floor beneath their feet
was black and treacherous. Before they had gone half a mile, her cousin Quentons mare stumbled into
a pit and shattered her foreleg. Quenton had to slit her throat to stop her screaming. We should make
torches, urged Tris.
Fire will bring the northmen down on us. Asha cursed beneath her breath, wondering if it had
been a mistake to leave the castle. No. If we had stayed and fought, we might all be dead by now. But it
was no good blundering on through the dark either. These trees will kill us if they can. She took off her
helm and pushed back her sweat-soaked hair. The sun will be up in a few hours. Well stop here and
rest till break of day.
Stopping proved simple; rest came hard. No one slept, not even Droop-eye Dale, an oarsman
who had been known to nap between strokes. Some of the men shared a skin of Galbart Glovers apple
wine, passing it from hand to hand. Those who had brought food shared it with those who had not. The
riders fed and watered their horses. Her cousin Quenton Greyjoy sent three men up trees, to watch for
any sign of torches in the woods. Cromm honed his axe, and Qarl the Maid his sword. The horses
cropped dead brown grass and weeds. Hagens red-haired daughter seized Tris Botley by the hand to
draw him off into the trees. When he refused her, she went off with Six-Toed Harl instead.
Would that I could do the same. It would be sweet to lose herself in Qarls arms one last time.
Asha had a bad feeling in her belly. Would she ever feel Black Winds deck beneath her feet again? And
if she did, where would she sail her? The isles are closed to me, unless I mean to bend my knees and

spread my legs and suffer Eric Ironmakers embraces, and no port in Westeros is like to welcome the
krakens daughter. She could turn merchanter, as Tris seemed to want, or else make for the Stepstones
and join the pirates there. Or 
I send you each a piece of prince, she muttered.
Qarl grinned. I would sooner have a piece of you, he whispered, the sweet piece thats
Something flew from the brush to land with a soft thump in their midst, bumping and bouncing.
It was round and dark and wet, with long hair that whipped about it as it rolled. When it came to rest
amongst the roots of an oak, Grimtongue said, Rolfe the Dwarfs not so tall as he once was. Half her
men were on their feet by then, reaching for shields and spears and axes. They lit no torches either, Asha
had time enough to think, and they know these woods better than we ever could. Then the trees erupted
all around them, and the northmen poured in howling. Wolves, she thought, they howl like bloody
wolves. The war cry of the north. Her ironborn screamed back at them, and the fight began.
No singer would ever make a song about that battle. No maester would ever write down an
account for one of the Readers beloved books. No banners flew, no warhorns moaned, no great lord
called his men about him to hear his final ringing words. They fought in the predawn gloom, shadow
against shadow, stumbling over roots and rocks, with mud and rotting leaves beneath their feet. The
ironborn were clad in mail and salt-stained leather, the northmen in furs and hides and piney branches.
The moon and stars looked down upon their struggle, their pale light filtered through the tangle of bare
limbs that twisted overhead.
The first man to come at Asha Greyjoy died at her feet with her throwing axe between his eyes.
That gave her respite enough to slip her shield onto her arm. To me! she called, but whether she was
calling to her own men or the foes even Asha could not have said for certain. A northman with an axe
loomed up before her, swinging with both hands as he howled in wordless fury. Asha raised her shield to
block his blow, then shoved in close to gut him with her dirk. His howling took on a different tone as he
fell. She spun and found another wolf behind her, and slashed him across the brow beneath his helm.
His own cut caught her below the breast, but her mail turned it, so she drove the point of her dirk into
his throat and left him to drown in his own blood. A hand seized her hair, but short as it was he could
not get a good enough grip to wrench her head back. Asha slammed her boot heel down onto his instep
and wrenched loose when he cried out in pain. By the time she turned the man was down and dying,
still clutching a handful of her hair. Qarl stood over him, with his long-sword dripping and moonlight
shining in his eyes.
Grimtongue was counting the northmen as he killed them, calling out, Four, as one went
down and, Five, a heartbeat later. The horses screamed and kicked and rolled their eyes in terror,
maddened by the butchery and blood  all but Tris Botleys big roan stallion. Tris had gained the saddle,
and his mount was rearing and wheeling as he laid about with his sword. I may owe him a kiss or three
before the night is done, thought Asha.

Seven, shouted Grimtongue, but beside him Lorren Longaxe sprawled with one leg twisted
under him, and the shadows kept on coming, shouting and rustling. We are fighting shrubbery, Asha
thought as she slew a man who had more leaves on him than most of the surrounding trees. That made
her laugh. Her laughter drew more wolves to her, and she killed them too, wondering if she should start
a count of her own. I am a woman wed, and heres my suckling babe. She pushed her dirk into a
northmans chest through fur and wool and boiled leather. His face was so close to hers that she could
smell the sour stench of his breath, and his hand was at her throat. Asha felt iron scraping against bone
as her point slid over a rib. Then the man shuddered and died. When she let go of him, she was so weak
she almost fell on top of him.
Later, she stood back-to-back with Qarl, listening to the grunts and curses all around them, to
brave men crawling through the shadows weeping for their mothers. A bush drove at her with a spear
long enough to punch through her belly and Qarls back as well, pinning them together as they died.
Better that than die alone, she thought, but her cousin Quenton killed the spearman before he reached
her. A heartbeat later another bush killed Quenton, driving an axe into the base of his skull.
Behind her Grimtongue shouted, Nine, and damn you all. Hagens daughter burst naked from
beneath the trees with two wolves at her heels. Asha wrenched loose a throwing axe and sent it flying
end over end to take one of them in the back. When he fell, Hagens daughter stumbled to her knees,
snatched up his sword, stabbed the second man, then rose again, smeared with blood and mud, her
long red hair unbound, and plunged into the fight.
Somewhere in the ebb and flow of battle, Asha lost Qarl, lost Tris, lost all of them. Her dirk was
gone as well, and all her throwing axes; instead she had a sword in hand, a short sword with a broad
thick blade, almost like a butchers cleaver. For her life she could not have said where she had gotten it.
Her arm ached, her mouth tasted of blood, her legs were trembling, and shafts of pale dawn light were
slanting through the trees. Has it been so long? How long have we been fighting?
Her last foe was a northman with an axe, a big man bald and bearded, clad in a byrnie of
patched and rusted mail that could only mean he was a chief or champion. He was not pleased to find
himself fighting a woman. Cunt! he roared each time he struck at her, his spittle dampening her
cheeks. Cunt! Cunt!
Asha wanted to shout back at him, but her throat was so dry she could do no more than grunt.
His axe was shivering her shield, cracking the wood on the downswing, tearing off long pale splinters
when he wrenched it back. Soon she would have only a tangle of kindling on her arm. She backed away
and shook free of the ruined shield, then backed away some more and danced left and right and left
again to avoid the downrushing axe.
And then her back came up hard against a tree, and she could dance no more. The wolf raised
the axe above his head to split her head in two. Asha tried to slip to her right, but her feet were tangled
in some roots, trapping her. She twisted, lost her footing, and the axehead crunched against her temple
with a scream of steel on steel. The world went red and black and red again. Pain crackled up her leg like

lightning, and far away she heard her northman say, You bloody cunt, as he lifted up his axe for the
blow that would finish her.
A trumpet blew.
Thats wrong, she thought. There are no trumpets in the Drowned Gods watery halls. Below the
waves the merlings hail their lord by blowing into seashells.
She dreamt of red hearts burning, and a black stag in a golden wood with flame streaming from
his antlers.
TYRION
By the time they reached Volantis, the sky was purple to the west and black to the east, and the
stars were coming out. The same stars as in Westeros, Tyrion Lannister reflected.
He might have taken some comfort in that if he had not been trussed up like a goose and lashed
to a saddle. He had given up squirming. The knots that bound him were too tight. Instead hed gone as
limp as a sack of meal. Saving my strength, he told himself, though for what he could not have said.
Volantis closed its gates at dark, and the guardsmen on its northern gate were grumbling
impatiently at the stragglers. They joined the queue behind a wagon laden with limes and oranges. The
guards motioned the wagon through with their torches but took a harder look at the big Andal on his
warhorse, with his longsword and his mail. A captain was summoned. Whilst he and the knight
exchanged some words in Volantene, one of the guardsmen pulled off his clawed gauntlet and gave
Tyrions head a rub. Im full of good fortune, the dwarf told him. Cut me loose, friend, and Ill see
youre well rewarded.
His captor overheard. Save your lies for those who speak your tongue, Imp, he said, when the
Volantenes waved them on.
They were moving again, through the gate and beneath the citys massive walls. You speak my
tongue. Can I sway you with promises, or are you determined to buy a lordship with my head?
I was a lord, by right of birth. I want no hollow titles.
Thats all youre like to get from my sweet sister.
And here Id heard a Lannister always pays his debts.
Oh, every penny  but never a groat more, my lord. Youll get the meal you bargained for, but
it wont be sauced with gratitude, and in the end it will not nourish you.

Might be all I want is to see you pay for crimes. The kinslayer is accursed in the eyes of gods
and men.
The gods are blind. And men see only what they wish.
I see you plain enough, Imp. Something dark had crept into the knights tone. I have done
things I am not proud of, things that brought shame onto my House and my fathers name  but to kill
your own sire? How could any man do that?
Give me a crossbow and pull down your breeches, and Ill show you. Gladly.
You think this is a jape?
I think life is a jape. Yours, mine, everyones.
Inside the city walls, they rode past guildhalls, markets, and bathhouses. Fountains splashed and
sang in the centers of wide squares, where men sat at stone tables, moving cyvasse pieces and sipping
wine from glass flutes as slaves lit ornate lanterns to hold the dark at bay. Palms and cedars grew along
the cobbled road, and monuments stood at every junction. Many of the statues lacked heads, the dwarf
noted, yet even headless they still managed to look imposing in the purple dusk.
As the warhorse plodded south along the river, the shops grew smaller and meaner, the trees
along the street became a row of stumps. Cobblestones gave way to devilgrass beneath their horses
hooves, then to soft wet mud the color of a babys nightsoil. The little bridges that spanned the small
streams that fed the Rhoyne creaked alarmingly beneath their weight. Where a fort had once
overlooked the river now stood a broken gate, gaping open like an old mans toothless mouth. Goats
could be glimpsed peering over the parapets.
Old Volantis, first daughter of Valyria, the dwarf mused. Proud Volantis, queen of the Rhoyne
and mistress of the Summer Sea, home to noble lords and lovely ladies of the most ancient blood. Never
mind the packs of naked children that roamed the alleys screaming in shrill voices, or the bravos
standing in the doors of wineshops fingering their sword hilts, or the slaves with their bent backs and
tattooed faces who scurried everywhere like cockroaches. Mighty Volantis, grandest and most populous
of the Nine Free Cities. Ancient wars had depopulated much of the city, however, and large areas of
Volantis had begun to sink back into the mud on which it stood. Beautiful Volantis, city of fountains and
flowers. But half the fountains were dry, half the pools cracked and stagnant. Flowering vines sent up
creepers from every crack in the wall or pavement, and young trees had taken root in the walls of
abandoned shops and roofless temples.
And then there was the smell. It hung in the hot, humid air, rich, rank, pervasive. Theres fish in
it, and flowers, and some elephant dung as well. Something sweet and something earthy and something
dead and rotten. This city smells like an old whore, Tyrion announced. Like some sagging slattern who
has drenched her privy parts in perfume to drown the stench between her legs. Not that I am
complaining. With whores, the young ones smell much better, but the old ones know more tricks.

You would know more of that than I do.
Ah, of course. That brothel where we met, did you take it for a sept? Was that your virgin sister
squirming in your lap?
That made him scowl. Give that tongue of yours a rest unless youd rather I tied it in a knot.
Tyrion swallowed his retort. His lip was still fat and swollen from the last time he had pushed the
big knight too far. Hard hands and no sense of humor makes for a bad marriage. That much hed learned
on the road from Selhorys. His thoughts went to his boot, to the mushrooms in the toe. His captor had
not searched him quite as thoroughly as he might have. There is always that escape. Cersei will not have
me alive, at least.
Farther south, signs of prosperity began to reappear. Abandoned buildings were seen less often,
the naked children vanished, the bravos in the doorways seemed more sumptuously dressed. A few of
the inns they passed actually looked like places where a man might sleep without fear of having his
throat slit. Lanterns swung from iron stanchions along the river road, swaying when the wind blew. The
streets grew broader, the buildings more imposing. Some were topped with great domes of colored
glass. In the gathering dusk, with fires lit beneath them, the domes glowed blue and red and green and
purple.
Even so, there was something in the air that made Tyrion uneasy. West of the Rhoyne, he knew,
the wharves of Volantis teemed with sailors, slaves, and traders, and the wineshops, inns, and brothels
all catered to them. East of the river, strangers from across the seas were seen less seldom. We are not
wanted here, the dwarf realized.
The first time they passed an elephant, Tyrion could not help but stare. There had been an
elephant in the menagerie at Lannisport when he had been a boy, but she had died when he was seven
 and this great grey behemoth looked to be twice her size.
Farther on, they fell in behind a smaller elephant, white as old bone and pulling an ornate cart.
Is an oxcart an oxcart without an ox? Tyrion asked his captor. When that sally got no response, he
lapsed back into silence, contemplating the rolling rump of the white dwarf elephant ahead of them.
Volantis was overrun with white dwarf elephants. As they drew closer to the Black Wall and the
crowded districts near the Long Bridge, they saw a dozen of them. Big grey elephants were not
uncommon eitherhuge beasts with castles on their backs. And in the half-light of evening the dung
carts had come out, attended by half-naked slaves whose task it was to shovel up the steaming piles left
by elephants both great and small. Swarms of flies followed the carts, so the dung slaves had flies
tattooed upon their cheeks, to mark them for what they were. Theres a trade for my sweet sister,
Tyrion mused. Shed look so pretty with a little shovel and flies tattooed on those sweet pink cheeks.
By then they had slowed to a crawl. The river road was thick with traffic, almost all of it flowing
south. The knight went with it, a log caught in a current. Tyrion eyed the passing throngs. Nine men of
every ten bore slave marks on their cheeks. So many slaves  where are they all going?

The red priests light their nightfires at sunset. The High Priest will be speaking. I would avoid it
if I could, but to reach the Long Bridge we must pass the red temple.
Three blocks later the street opened up before them onto a huge torchlit plaza, and there it
stood. Seven save me, thats got to be three times the size of the Great Sept of Baelor. An enormity of
pillars, steps, buttresses, bridges, domes, and towers flowing into one another as if they had all been
chiseled from one collossal rock, the Temple of the Lord of Light loomed like Aegons High Hill. A
hundred hues of red, yellow, gold, and orange met and melded in the temple walls, dissolving one into
the other like clouds at sunset. Its slender towers twisted ever upward, frozen flames dancing as they
reached for the sky. Fire turned to stone. Huge nightfires burned beside the temple steps, and between
them the High Priest had begun to speak.
Benerro. The priest stood atop a red stone pillar, joined by a slender stone bridge to a lofty
terrace where the lesser priests and acolytes stood. The acolytes were clad in robes of pale yellow and
bright orange, priests and priestesses in red.
The great plaza before them was packed almost solid. Many and more of the worshipers were
wearing some scrap of red cloth pinned to their sleeves or tied around their brows. Every eye was on the
high priest, save theirs. Make way, the knight growled as his horse pushed through the throng. Clear
a path. The Volantenes gave way resentfully, with mutters and angry looks.
Benerros high voice carried well. Tall and thin, he had a drawn face and skin white as milk.
Flames had been tattooed across his cheeks and chin and shaven head to make a bright red mask that
crackled about his eyes and coiled down and around his lipless mouth. Is that a slave tattoo? asked
Tyrion.
The knight nodded. The red temple buys them as children and makes them priests or temple
prostitutes or warriors. Look there. He pointed at the steps, where a line of men in ornate armor and
orange cloaks stood before the temples doors, clasping spears with points like writhing flames. The
Fiery Hand. The Lord of Lights sacred soldiers, defenders of the temple.
Fire knights. And how many fingers does this hand have, pray?
One thousand. Never more, and never less. A new flame is kindled for every one that gutters
out.
Benerro jabbed a finger at the moon, made a fist, spread his hands wide. When his voice rose in
a crescendo, flames leapt from his fingers with a sudden whoosh and made the crowd gasp. The priest
could trace fiery letters in the air as well. Valyrian glyphs. Tyrion recognized perhaps two in ten; one was
Doom, the other Darkness.
Shouts erupted from the crowd. Women were weeping and men were shaking their fists. I have
a bad feeling about this. The dwarf was reminded of the day Myrcella sailed for Dorne and the riot that
boiled up as they made their way back to the Red Keep.

Haldon Halfmaester had spoken of using the red priest to Young Griffs advantage, Tyrion
recalled. Now that he had seen and heard the man himself, that struck him as a very bad idea. He hoped
that Griff had better sense. Some allies are more dangerous than enemies. But Lord Connington will need
to puzzle that one out for himself. I am like to be a head on a spike.
The priest was pointing at the Black Wall behind the temple, gesturing up at its parapets, where
a handful of armored guardsmen stood gazing down. What is he saying? Tyrion asked the knight.
That Daenerys stands in peril. The dark eye has fallen upon her, and the minions of night are
plotting her destruction, praying to their false gods in temples of deceit  conspiring at betrayal with
godless outlanders 
The hairs on the back of Tyrions neck began to prickle. Prince Aegon will find no friend here. The
red priest spoke of ancient prophecy, a prophecy that foretold the coming of a hero to deliver the world
from darkness. One hero. Not two. Daenerys has dragons, Aegon does not. The dwarf did not need to be
a prophet himself to foresee how Benerro and his followers might react to a second Targaryen. Griff will
see that too, surely, he thought, surprised to find how much he cared.
The knight had forced their way through most of the press at the back of the plaza, ignoring the
curses that were flung at them as they passed. One man stepped in front of them, but his captor gripped
the hilt of his longsword and drew it just far enough to show a foot of naked steel. The man melted
away, and all at once an alley opened up before them. The knight urged his mount to a trot, and they
left the crowd behind them. For a while Tyrion could still hear Benerros voice growing fainter at their
back and the roars his words provoked, sudden as thunder.
They came upon a stable. The knight dismounted, then hammered on the door until a haggard
slave with a horsehead on his cheek came running. The dwarf was pulled down roughly from the saddle
and lashed to a post whilst his captor woke the stables owner and haggled with him over the price of
his horse and saddle. Cheaper to sell a horse than to ship one half across the world. Tyrion sensed a ship
in his immediate future. Perhaps he was a prophet after all.
When the dickering was done, the knight slung his weapons, shield, and saddlebag over his
shoulder and asked for directions to the nearest smithy. That proved shuttered too, but opened quick
enough at the knights shout. The smith gave Tyrion a squint, then nodded and accepted a fistful of
coins. Come here, the knight told his prisoner. He drew his dagger and slit Tyrions bonds apart. My
thanks, said the dwarf as he rubbed his wrists, but the knight only laughed and said, Save your
gratitude for someone who deserves it, Imp. You will not like this next bit.
He was not wrong.
The manacles were black iron, thick and heavy, each weighing a good two pounds, if the dwarf
was any judge. The chains added even more weight. I must be more fearsome than I knew, Tyrion
confessed as the last links were hammered closed. Each blow sent a shock up his arm almost to the
shoulder. Or were you afraid that I would dash away on these stunted little legs of mine?

The ironsmith did not so much as look up from his work, but the knight chuckled darkly. Its
your mouth that concerns me, not your legs. In fetters, youre a slave. No one will listen to a word you
say, not even those who speak the tongue of Westeros.
Theres no need for this, Tyrion protested. I will be a good little prisoner, I will, I will.
Prove it, then, and shut your mouth.
So he bowed his head and bit his tongue as the chains were fixed, wrist to wrist, wrist to ankle,
ankle to ankle. These bloody things weigh more than I do. Still, at least he drew breath. His captor could
just as easily have cut his head off. That was all Cersei required, after all. Not striking it off straightaway
had been his captors first mistake. There is half a world between Volantis and Kings Landing, and much
and more can happen along the way, ser.
The rest of the way they went by foot, Tyrion clanking and clattering as he struggled to keep up
with his captors long, impatient strides. Whenever he threatened to fall behind, the knight would seize
his fetters and yank them roughly, sending the dwarf stumbling and hopping along beside him. It could
be worse. He could be urging me along with a whip.
Volantis straddled one mouth of the Rhoyne where the river kissed the sea, its two halves joined
by the Long Bridge. The oldest, richest part of the city was east of the river, but sellswords, barbarians,
and other uncouth outlanders were not welcome there, so they must needs cross over to the west.
The gateway to the Long Bridge was a black stone arch carved with sphinxes, manticores,
dragons, and creatures stranger still. Beyond the arch stretched the great span that the Valyrians had
built at the height of their glory, its fused stone roadway supported by massive piers. The road was just
wide enough for two carts to pass abreast, so whenever a wagon headed west passed one going east,
both had to slow to a crawl.
It was well they were afoot. A third of the way out, a wagon laden with melons had gotten its
wheels tangled with one piled high with silken carpets and brought all wheeled traffic to a halt. Much of
the foot traffic had stopped as well, to watch the drivers curse and scream at one another, but the
knight grabbed hold of Tyrions chain and bulled a path through the throng for both of them. In the
middle of the press, a boy tried to reach into his purse, but a hard elbow put an end to that and spread
the thiefs bloody nose across half his face.
Buildings rose to either side of them: shops and temples, taverns and inns, cyvasse parlors and
brothels. Most were three or four stories tall, each floor overhanging the one beneath it. Their top floors
almost kissed. Crossing the bridge felt like passing through a torchlit tunnel. Along the span were shops
and stalls of every sort; weavers and lacemakers displayed their wares cheek by jowl with glassblowers,
candlemakers, and fishwives selling eels and oysters. Each goldsmith had a guard at his door, and every
spicer had two, for their goods were twice as valuable. Here and there, between the shops, a traveler
might catch a glimpse of the river he was crossing. To the north the Rhoyne was a broad black ribbon

bright with stars, five times as wide as the Blackwater Rush at Kings Landing. South of the bridge the
river opened up to embrace the briny sea.
At the bridges center span, the severed hands of thieves and cutpurses hung like strings of
onions from iron stanchions along the roadway. Three heads were on display as welltwo men and a
woman, their crimes scrawled on tablets underneath them. A pair of spearmen attended them, clad in
polished helms and shirts of silver mail. Across their cheeks were tiger stripes as green as jade. From
time to time the guards waved their spears to chase away the kestrels, gulls, and carrion crows paying
court to the deceased. The birds returned to the heads within moments.
What did they do? Tyrion inquired innocently.
The knight glanced at the inscriptions. The woman was a slave who raised her hand to her
mistress. The older man was accused of fomenting rebellion and spying for the dragon queen.
And the young one?
Killed his father.
Tyrion gave the rotting head a second look. Why, it almost looks as if those lips are smiling.
Farther on, the knight paused briefly to consider a jeweled tiara displayed upon a bed of purple
velvet. He passed that by, but a few steps on he stopped again to haggle over a pair of gloves at a
leatherworkers stall. Tyrion was grateful for the respites. The headlong pace had left him puffing, and
his wrists were chafed raw from the manacles.
From the far end of the Long Bridge, it was only a short walk through the teeming waterfront
districts of the west bank, down torchlit streets crowded with sailors, slaves, and drunken merrymakers.
Once an elephant lumbered past with a dozen half-naked slave girls waving from the castle on its back,
teasing passersby with glimpses of their breasts and crying, Malaquo, Malaquo. They made such an
entrancing sight that Tyrion almost waddled right into the steaming pile of dung the elephant had left to
mark its passage. He was saved at the last instant when the knight snatched him aside, yanking on his
chain so hard it made him reel and stumble.
How much farther? the dwarf asked. Just there. Fishmongers Square.
Their destination proved to be the Merchants House, a four-story monstrosity that squatted
amongst the warehouses, brothels, and taverns of the waterside like some enormous fat man
surrounded by children. Its common room was larger than the great halls of half the castles in Westeros,
a dim-lit maze of a place with a hundred private alcoves and hidden nooks whose blackened beams and
cracked ceilings echoed to the din of sailors, traders, captains, money changers, shippers, and slavers,
lying, cursing, and cheating each other in half a hundred different tongues.
Tyrion approved the choice of hostelry. Soon or late the Shy Maid must reach Volantis. This was
the citys biggest inn, first choice for shippers, captains, and merchantmen. A lot of business was done in

that cavernous warren of a common room. He knew enough of Volantis to know that. Let Griff turn up
here with Duck and Haldon, and he would be free again soon enough.
Meanwhile, he would be patient. His chance would come.
The rooms upstairs proved rather less than grand, however, particularly the cheap ones up on
the fourth floor. Wedged into a corner of the building beneath a sloping roof, the bedchamber his
captor had engaged featured a low ceiling, a sagging feather bed with an unpleasant odor, and a slanting
wood-plank floor that reminded Tyrion of his sojourn at the Eyrie. At least this room has walls. It had
windows too; those were its chief amenity, along with the iron ring set in the wall, so useful for chaining
up ones slaves. His captor paused only long enough to light a tallow candle before securing Tyrions
chains to the ring.
Must you? the dwarf protested, rattling feebly. Where am I going to go, out the window?
You might.
We are four floors up, and I cannot fly.
You can fall. I want you alive.
Aye, but why? Cersei is not like to care. Tyrion rattled his chains. I know who you are, ser. It
had not been hard to puzzle out. The bear on his surcoat, the arms on his shield, the lost lordship he had
mentioned. I know what you are. And if you know who I am, you also know that I was the Kings Hand
and sat in council with the Spider. Would it interest you to know that it was the eunuch who dispatched
me on this journey? Him and Jaime, but Ill leave my brother out of it. I am as much his creature as you
are. We ought not be at odds.
That did not please the knight. I took the Spiders coin, Ill not deny it, but I was never his
creature. And my loyalties lie elsewhere now.
With Cersei? More fool you. All my sister requires is my head, and you have a fine sharp sword.
Why not end this farce now and spare us both?
The knight laughed. Is this some dwarfs trick? Beg for death in hopes Ill let you live? He went
to the door. Ill bring you something from the kitchens.
How kind of you. Ill wait here.
I know you will. Yet when the knight left, he locked the door behind him with a heavy iron key.
The Merchants House was famous for its locks. As secure as a gaol, the dwarf thought bitterly, but at
least there are those windows.
Tyrion knew that the chances of his escaping his chains were little and less, but even so, he felt
obliged to try. His efforts to slip a hand through the manacle served only to scrap off more skin and
leave his wrist slick with blood, and all his tugging or twisting could not pull the iron ring from the wall.

Bugger this, he thought, slumping back as far as his chains would allow. His legs had begun to cramp.
This was going to be a hellishly uncomfortable night. The first of many, I do not doubt.
The room was stifling, so the knight had opened the shutters to let in a cross breeze. Cramped
into a corner of the building under the eaves, the chamber was fortunate in having two windows. One
looked toward the Long Bridge and the black-walled heart of Old Volantis across the river. The other
opened on the square below. Fishermongers Square, Mormont called it. As tight as the chains were,
Tyrion found he could see out the latter by leaning sideways and letting the iron ring support his weight.
Not as long a fall as the one from Lysa Arryns sky cells, but it would leave me just as dead. Perhaps if I
were drunk 
Even at this hour the square was crowded, with sailors roistering, whores prowling for custom,
and merchants going about their business. A red priestess scurried past, attended by a dozen acolytes
with torches, their robes whisking about their ankles. Elsewhere a pair of cyvasse players waged war
outside a tavern. A slave stood beside their table, holding a lantern over the board. Tyrion could hear a
woman singing. The words were strange, the tune was soft and sad. If I knew what she was singing, I
might cry. Closer to hand, a crowd was gathering around a pair of jugglers throwing flaming torches at
each other.
His captor returned shortly, carrying two tankards and a roasted duck. He kicked the door shut,
ripped the duck in two, and tossed half of it to Tyrion. He would have snatched it from the air, but his
chains brought him up short when he tried to lift his arms. Instead the bird struck his temple and slid hot
and greasy down his face, and he had to hunker down and stretch for it with fetters clanking. He got it
on the third try and tore into it happily with his teeth. Some ale to wash this down?
Mormont handed him a tankard. Most of Volantis is getting drunk, why not you?
The ale was sweet as well. It tasted of fruit. Tyrion drank a healthy swallow and belched happily.
The tankard was pewter, very heavy. Empty it and fling it at his head, he thought. If I am lucky, it might
crack his skull. If Im very lucky, it will miss, and hell beat me to death with his fists. He took another
gulp. Is this some holy day?
Third day of their elections. They last for ten. Ten days of madness. Torchlight marches,
speeches, mummers and minstrels and dancers, bravos fighting death duels for the honor of their
candidates, elephants with the names of would-be triarchs painted on their sides. Those jugglers are
performing for Methyso.
Remind me to vote for someone else. Tyrion licked grease from his fingers. Below, the crowd
was flinging coins at the jugglers. Do all these would-be triarchs provide mummer shows?
They do whatever they think will win them votes, said Mormont. Food, drink, spectacle 
Alios has sent a hundred pretty slave girls out into the streets to lie with voters.
Im for him, Tyrion decided. Bring me a slave girl.

Theyre for freeborn Volantenes with enough property to vote. Precious few voters west of the
river.
And this goes on for ten days? Tyrion laughed. I might enjoy that, though three kings is two
too many. I am trying to imagine ruling the Seven Kingdoms with my sweet sister and brave brother
beside me. One of us would kill the other two inside a year. I am surprised these triarchs dont do the
same.
A few have tried. Might be the Volantenes are the clever ones and us Westerosi the fools.
Volantis has known her share of follies, but shes never suffered a boy triarch. Whenever a madmans
been elected, his colleagues restrain him until his year has run its course. Think of the dead who might
still live if Mad Aerys only had two fellow kings to share the rule.
Instead he had my father, Tyrion thought. Some in the Free Cities think that were all savages
on our side of the narrow sea, the knight went on. The ones who dont think that were children,
crying out for a fathers strong hand.
Or a mothers? Cersei will love that. Especially when he presents her with my head. You seem
to know this city well.
I spent the best part of a year here. The knight sloshed the dregs at the bottom of his tankard.
When Stark drove me into exile, I fled to Lys with my second wife. Braavos would have suited me
better, but Lynesse wanted someplace warm. Instead of serving the Braavosi I fought them on the
Rhoyne, but for every silver I earned my wife spent ten. By the time I got back to Lys, she had taken a
lover, who told me cheerfully that I would be enslaved for debt unless I gave her up and left the city.
That was how I came to Volantis  one step ahead of slavery, owning nothing but my sword and the
clothes upon my back.
And now you want to run home.
The knight drained the last of his ale. On the morrow Ill find us a ship. The bed is mine. You can
have whatever piece of floor your chains will let you reach. Sleep if you can. If not, count your crimes.
That should see you through till the morning.
You have your crimes to answer for, Jorah Mormont, the dwarf thought, but it seemed wiser to
keep that thought to himself.
Ser Jorah hung his sword belt on a bedpost, kicked off his boots, pulled his chain mail over his
head, and stripped out of his wool and leather and sweat-stained undertunic to reveal a scarred, brawny
torso covered with dark hair. If I could skin him, I could sell that pelt for a fur cloak, Tyrion thought as
Mormont tumbled into the slightly smelly comfort of his sagging feather bed.
In no time at all the knight was snoring, leaving his prize alone with his chains. With both
windows open wide, the light of the waning moon spilled across the bedchamber. Sounds drifted up

from the square below: snatches of drunken song, the yowling of a cat in heat, the far-off ring of steel
on steel. Someones about to die, thought Tyrion.
His wrist was throbbing where hed torn the skin, and his fetters made it impossible for him to
sit, let alone stretch out. The best he could do was twist sideways to lean against the wall, and before
long he began to lose all feeling in his hands. When he moved to relieve the strain, sensation came
flooding back as pain. He had to grind his teeth to keep from screaming. He wondered how much his
father had hurt when the quarrel punched through his groin, what Shae had felt as he twisted the chain
around her lying throat, what Tysha had been feeling as they raped her. His sufferings were nothing
compared to their own, but that did not make him hurt any less. Just make it stop.
Ser Jorah had rolled onto one side, so all that Tyrion could see of him was a broad, hairy,
muscular back. Even if I could slip these chains, Id need to climb over him to reach his sword belt.
Perhaps if I could ease the dagger loose  Or else he could try for the key, unlock the door, creep down
the stairs and through the common room  and go where? I have no friends, no coin, I do not even
speak the local tongue.
Exhaustion finally overwhelmed his pains, and Tyrion drifted off into a fitful sleep. But every
time another cramp took root inside his calf and twisted, the dwarf would cry out in his sleep, trembling
in his chains. He woke with every muscle aching, to find morning streaming through the windows bright
and golden as the lion of Lannister. Below he could hear the cries of fishmongers and the rumble of
iron-rimmed wheels on cobblestones.
Jorah Mormont was standing over him. If I take you off the ring, will you do as youre told?
Will it involve dancing? I might find dancing difficult. I cannot feel my legs. They may have
fallen off. Elsewise, I am your creature. On my honor as a Lannister.
The Lannisters have no honor. Ser Jorah loosed his chains anyway. Tyrion took two wobbly
steps and fell. The blood rushing back into his hands brought tears to his eyes. He bit his lip and said,
Wherever were going, you will need to roll me there.
Instead the big knight carried him, hoisting him by the chain between his wrists.
The common room of the Merchants House was a dim labyrinth of alcoves and grottoes built
around a central courtyard where a trellis of flowering vines threw intricate patterns across the
flagstone floor and green and purple moss grew between the stones. Slave girls scurried through light
and shadow, bearing flagons of ale and wine and some iced green drink that smelled of mint. One table
in twenty was occupied at this hour of the morning.
One of those was occupied by a dwarf. Clean-shaved and pink-cheeked, with a mop of chestnut
hair, a heavy brow, and a squashed nose, he perched on a high stool with a wooden spoon in hand,
contemplating a bowl of purplish gruel with red-rimmed eyes. Ugly little bastard, Tyrion thought.

The other dwarf felt his stare. When he raised his head and saw Tyrion, the spoon slipped from
his hand.
He saw me, Tyrion warned Mormont. What of it?
He knows me. Who I am.
Should I stuff you in a sack, so no one will see you? The knight touched the hilt of his
longsword. If he means to try and take you, he is welcome to try.
Welcome to die, you mean, thought Tyrion. What threat could he pose to a big man like you? He
is only a dwarf.
Ser Jorah claimed a table in a quiet corner and ordered food and drink. They broke their fast
with warm soft flatbread, pink fish roe, honey sausage, and fried locusts, washed down with a
bittersweet black ale. Tyrion ate like a man half-starved. You have a healthy appetite this morning, the
knight observed.
Ive heard the food in hell is wretched. Tyrion glanced at the door, where a man had just come
in: tall and stooped, his pointed beard dyed a splotchy purple. Some Tyroshi trader. A gust of sound
came with him from outside; the cries of gulls, a womans laughter, the voices of the fishmongers. For
half a heartbeat he thought he glimpsed Illyrio Mopatis, but it was only one of those white dwarf
elephants passing the front door.
Mormont spread some fish roe across a slice of flatbread and took a bite. Are you expecting
someone?
Tyrion shrugged. You never know who the wind might blow in. My one true love, my fathers
ghost, a duck. He popped a locust into his mouth and crunched it. Not bad. For a bug.
Last night the talk here was all of Westeros. Some exiled lord has hired the Golden Company to
win back his lands for him. Half the captains in Volantis are racing upriver to Volon Therys to offer him
their ships.
Tyrion had just swallowed another locust. He almost choked on it. Is he mocking me? How much
could he know of Griff and Aegon? Bugger, he said. I meant to hire the Golden Company myself, to
win me Casterly Rock. Could this be some ploy of Griffs, false reports deliberately spread? Unless 
Could the pretty princeling have swallowed the bait? Turned them west instead of east, abandoning his
hopes of wedding Queen Daenerys? Abandoning the dragons  would Griff allow that? Ill gladly hire
you as well, ser. My fathers seat is mine by rights. Swear me your sword, and once I win it back Ill
drown you in gold.
I saw a man drowned in gold once. It was not a pretty sight. If you ever get my sword, it will b e
through your bowels.

A sure cure for constipation, said Tyrion. Just ask my father. He reached for his tankard and
took a slow swallow, to help conceal whatever might be showing on his face. It had to be a stratagem,
designed to lull Volantene suspicions. Get the men aboard with this false pretext and seize the ships
when the fleet is out to sea. Is that Griffs plan? It might work. The Golden Company was ten thousand
strong, seasoned and disciplined. None of them seamen, though. Griff will need to keep a sword at every
throat, and should they come on Slavers Bay and need to fight 
The serving girl returned. The widow will see you next, noble ser. Have you brought a gift for
her?
Yes. Thank you. Ser Jorah slipped a coin into the girls palm and sent her on her way.
Tyrion frowned. Whose widow is this?
The widow of the waterfront. East of the Rhoyne they still call her Vogarros whore, though
never to her face.
The dwarf was not enlightened. And Vogarro was  ?
An elephant, seven times a triarch, very rich, a power on the docks. Whilst other men built the
ships and sailed them, he built piers and storehouses, brokered cargoes, changed money, insured
shipowners against the hazards of the sea. He dealt in slaves as well. When he grew besotted with one
of them, a bedslave trained at Yunkai in the way of seven sighs, it was a great scandal  and a greater
scandal when he freed her and took her for his wife. After he died, she carried on his ventures. No
freedman may dwell within the Black Wall, so she was compelled to sell Vogarros manse. She took up
residence at the Merchants House. That was thirty-two years ago, and she remains here to this day.
Thats her behind you, back by the courtyard, holding court at her customary table. No, dont look.
Theres someone with her now. When hes done, it will be our turn.
And this old harridan will help you how?
Ser Jorah stood. Watch and see. Hes leaving.
Tyrion hopped down off his chair with a rattle of iron. This should be enlightening.
There was something vulpine about the way the woman sat in her corner by the courtyard,
something reptilian about her eyes. Her white hair was so thin that the pink of her scalp showed
through. Under one eye she still bore faint scars where a knife had cut away her tears. The remnants of
her morning meal littered the tablesardine heads, olive pits, chunks of flatbread. Tyrion did not fail to
note how well chosen her customary table was; solid stone at her back, a leafy alcove to one side for
entrances and exits, a perfect view of the inns front door, yet so steeped in shadow that she herself was
nigh invisible.

The sight of him made the old woman smile. A dwarf, she purred, in a voice as sinister as it
was soft. She spoke the Common Tongue with only a trace of accent. Volantis has been overrun with
dwarfs of late, it seems. Does this one do tricks?
Yes, Tyrion wanted to say. Give me a crossbow, and Ill show you my favorite. No, Ser Jorah
answered.
A pity. I once had a monkey who could perform all sorts of clever tricks. Your dwarf reminds me
of him. Is he a gift?
No. I brought you these. Ser Jorah produced his pair of gloves, and slapped them down on the
table beside the other gifts the widow had received this morning: a silver goblet, an ornate fan carved of
jade leaves so thin they were translucent, and an ancient bronze dagger marked with runes. Beside such
treasures the gloves looked cheap and tawdry.
Gloves for my poor old wrinkled hands. How nice. The widow made no move to touch them.
I bought them on the Long Bridge.
A man can buy most anything on the Long Bridge. Gloves, slaves, monkeys. The years had bent
her spine and put a crones hump upon her back, but the widows eyes were bright and black. Now tell
this old widow how she may be of service to you.
We need swift passage to Meereen.
One word. Tyrion Lannisters world turned upside down.
One word. Meereen. Or had he misheard?
One word. Meereen, he said Meereen, hes taking me to Meereen. Meereen meant life. Or hope
for life, at least.
Why come to me? the widow said. I own no ships.
You have many captains in your debt.
Deliver me to the queen, he says. Aye, but which queen? He isnt selling me to Cersei. Hes giving
me to Daenerys Targaryen. Thats why he hasnt hacked my head off. Were going east, and Griff and his
prince are going west, the bloody fools.
Oh, it was all too much. Plots within plots, but all roads lead down the dragons gullet. A guffaw
burst from his lips, and suddenly Tyrion could not stop laughing.
Your dwarf is having a fit, the widow observed. My dwarf will be quiet, or Ill see him
gagged.
Tyrion covered his mouth with his hands. Meereen!

The widow of the waterfront decided to ignore him. Shall we have a drink? she asked. Dust
motes floated in the air as a serving girl filled two green glass cups for Ser Jorah and the widow. Tyrions
throat was dry, but no cup was poured for him. The widow took a sip, rolled the wine round her mouth,
swallowed. All the other exiles are sailing west, or so these old ears have heard. And all those captains
in my debt are falling over one another to take them there and leach a little gold from the coffers of the
Golden Company. Our noble triarchs have pledged a dozen warships to the cause, to see the fleet safely
as far as the Stepstones. Even old Doniphos has given his assent. Such a glorious adventure. And yet you
would go the other way, ser.
My business is in the east.
And what business is that, I wonder? Not slaves, the silver queen has put an end to that. She
has closed the fighting pits as well, so it cannot be a taste for blood. What else could Meereen offer to a
Westerosi knight? Bricks? Olives? Dragons? Ah, there it is. The old womans smile turned feral. I have
heard it said that the silver queen feeds them with the flesh of infants while she herself bathes in the
blood of virgin girls and takes a different lover every night.
Ser Jorahs mouth had hardened. The Yunkaii are pouring poison in your ears. My lady should
not believe such filth.
I am no lady, but even Vogarros whore knows the taste of falsehood. This much is true, though
 the dragon queen has enemies  Yunkai, New Ghis, Tolos, Qarth  aye, and Volantis, soon enough.
You would travel to Meereen? Just wait a while, ser. Swords will be wanted soon enough, when the
warships bend their oars eastward to bring down the silver queen. Tigers love to bare their claws, and
even elephants will kill if threatened. Malaquo hungers for a taste of glory, and Nyessos owes much of
his wealth to the slave trade. Let Alios or Parquello or Belicho gain the triarchy, and the fleets will sail.
Ser Jorah scowled. If Doniphos is returned 
Vogarro will be returned first, and my sweet lord has been dead these thirty years.
Behind them, some sailor was bellowing loudly. They call this ale? Fuck. A monkey could piss
better ale.
And you would drink it, another voice replied.
Tyrion twisted around for a look, hoping against hope that it was Duck and Haldon he was
hearing. Instead he saw two strangers  and the dwarf, who was standing a few feet away staring at him
intently. He seemed somehow familiar.
The widow sipped daintily at her wine. Some of the first elephants were women, she said,
the ones who brought the tigers down and ended the old wars. Trianna was returned four times. That
was three hundred years ago, alas. Volantis has had no female triarch since, though some women have
the vote. Women of good birth who dwell in ancient palaces behind the Black Walls, not creatures such

as me. The Old Blood will have their dogs and children voting before any freedman. No, it will be
Belicho, or perhaps Alios, but either way it will be war. Or so they think.
And what do you think? Ser Jorah asked.
Good, thought Tyrion. The right question. Oh, I think it will be war as well, but not the war they
want. The old woman leaned forward, her black eyes gleaming. I think that red Rhllor has more
worshipers in this city than all the other gods together. Have you heard Benerro preach?
Last night.
Benerro can see the morrow in his flames, the widow said. Triarch Malaquo tried to hire the
Golden Company, did you know? He meant to clean out the red temple and put Benerro to the sword.
He dare not use tiger cloaks. Half of them worship the Lord of Light as well. Oh, these are dire days in
Old Volantis, even for wrinkled old widows. But not half so dire as in Meereen, I think. So tell me, ser 
why do you seek the silver queen?
That is my concern. I can pay for our passage and pay well. I have the silver.
Fool, thought Tyrion. Its not coin she wants, its respect. Havent you heard a word shes said?
He glanced back over his shoulder again. The dwarf had moved closer to their table. And he seemed to
have a knife in his hand. The hairs on the back of Tyrions neck began to prickle.
Keep your silver. I have gold. And spare me your black looks, ser. I am too old to be frightened
of a scowl. You are a hard man, I see, and no doubt skilled with that long sword at your side, but this is
my realm. Let me crook a finger and you may find yourself traveling to Meereen chained to an oar in the
belly of a galley. She lifted her jade fan and opened it. There was a rustle of leaves, and a man slid from
the overgrown archway to her left. His face was a mass of scars, and in one hand he held a sword, short
and heavy as a cleaver. Seek the widow of the waterfront, someone told you, but they should have also
warned you, beware the widows sons. It is such a sweet morning, though, I shall ask again. Why would
you seek Daenerys Targaryen, whom half the world wants dead?
Jorah Mormonts face was dark with anger, but he answered. To serve her. Defend her. Die for
her, if need be.
That made the widow laugh. You want to rescue her, is that the way of it? From more enemies
than I can name, with swords beyond count  this is what youd have the poor widow believe? That you
are a true and chivalrous Westerosi knight crossing half the world to come to the aid of this  well, she
is no maiden, though she may still be fair. She laughed again. Do you think your dwarf will please her?
Will she bathe in his blood, do you think, or content herself with striking off his head?
Ser Jorah hesitated. The dwarf is

I know who the dwarf is, and what he is. Her black eyes turned to Tyrion, hard as stone.
Kinslayer, kingslayer, murderer, turncloak. Lannister. She made the last a curse. What do you plan to
offer the dragon queen, little man?
My hate, Tyrion wanted to say. Instead he spread his hands as far as the fetters would allow.
Whatever she would have of me. Sage counsel, savage wit, a bit of tumbling. My cock, if she desires it.
My tongue, if she does not. I will lead her armies or rub her feet, as she desires. And the only reward I
ask is I might be allowed to rape and kill my sister.
That brought the smile back to the old womans face. This one at least is honest, she
announced, but you, ser  I have known a dozen Westerosi knights and a thousand adventurers of the
same ilk, but none so pure as you would paint yourself. Men are beasts, selfish and brutal. However
gentle the words, there are always darker motives underneath. I do not trust you, ser. She flicked them
off with her fan, as if they were no more than flies buzzing about her head. If you want to get to
Meereen, swim. I have no help to give you.
Then seven hells broke out at once.
Ser Jorah started to rise, the widow snapped her fan closed, her scarred man slid out of the
shadows  and behind them a girl screamed. Tyrion spun just in time to see the dwarf rushing toward
him. Shes a girl, he realized all at once, a girl dressed up in mans clothes. And she means to gut me with
that knife.
For half a heartbeat Ser Jorah, the widow, and the scarred man stood still as stone. Idlers
watched from nearby tables, sipping ale and wine, but no one moved to interfere. Tyrion had to move
both hands at once, but his chains had just enough give for him to reach the flagon on the table. He
closed his fist around it, spun, dashed its contents into the face of the charging dwarf girl, then threw
himself to one side to avoid her knife. The flagon shattered underneath him as the floor came up to
smack him in the head. Then the girl was on him once again. Tyrion rolled on one side as she buried the
knife blade in the floorboards, yanked it free, raised it again 
 and suddenly she was rising off the floor, legs kicking wildly as she struggled in Ser Jorahs
grasp. No! she wailed, in the Common Tongue of Westeros. Let go! Tyrion heard her tunic rip as she
fought to free herself.
Mormont had her by the collar with one hand. With the other he wrenched the dagger from her
grasp. Enough.
The landlord made his appearance then, a cudgel in his hand. When he saw the broken flagon,
he uttered a blistering curse and demanded to know what had happened here. Dwarf fight, replied
the Tyroshi with the purple beard, chuckling.
Tyrion blinked up at the dripping girl twisting in the air. Why? he demanded. What did I ever
do to you?

They killed him. All the fight went out of her at that. She hung limply in Mormonts grasp as
her eyes filled with tears. My brother. They took him and they killed him.
Who killed him? asked Mormont. Sailors. Sailors from the Seven Kingdoms. There were five
of them, drunk. They saw us jousting in the square and followed us. When they realized I was a girl they
let me go, but they took my brother and killed him. They cut his head off.
Tyrion felt a sudden shock of recognition. They saw us jousting in the square. He knew who the
girl was then. Did you ride the pig? he asked her. Or the dog?
The dog, she sobbed. Oppo always rode the pig.
The dwarfs from Joffreys wedding. It was their show that had started all the trouble that night.
How strange, to encounter them again half a world away. Though perhaps not so strange as that. If they
had half the wits of their pig, they would have fled Kings Landing the night Joff died, before Cersei could
assign them some share of blame in her sons death. Let her down, ser, he told Ser Jorah Mormont.
She wont do us any harm.
Ser Jorah dumped the dwarf girl on the floor. I am sorry for your brother  but we had no part
in his murder.
He did. The girl pushed herself to her knees, clutching her torn, wine-drenched tunic to small,
pale breasts. It was him they wanted. They thought Oppo was him. The girl was weeping, begging for
help from anyone who would listen. He should die, the way my poor brother died. Please. Someone
help me. Someone kill him. The landlord seized her roughly by one arm and wrenched her back to her
feet, shouting in Volantene, demanding to know who was going to pay for this damage.
The widow of the waterfront gave Mormont a cool look. Knights defend the weak and protect
the innocent, they say. And I am the fairest maid in all Volantis. Her laugh was full of scorn. What do
they call you, child?
Penny.
The old woman called out to the landlord in the tongue of Old Volantis. Tyrion knew enough to
understand that she was telling him to take the dwarf girl up to her rooms, give her wine, and find some
clothes for her to wear.
When they were gone, the widow studied Tyrion, her black eyes shining. Monsters should be
larger, it seems to me. You are worth a lordship back in Westeros, little man. Here, I fear, your worth is
somewhat less. But I think I had best help you after all. Volantis is no safe place for dwarfs, it seems.
You are too kind. Tyrion gave her his sweetest smile. Perhaps you would remove these
charming iron bracelets as well? This monster has but half a nose, and it itches most abominably. The
chains are too short for me to scratch it. Ill make you a gift of them, and gladly.

How generous. But I have worn iron in my time, and now I find that I prefer gold and silver. And
sad to say, this is Volantis, where fetters and chains are cheaper than day-old bread and it is forbidden
to help a slave escape.
Im no slave.
Every man ever taken by slavers sings that same sad song. I dare not help you  here. She
leaned forward again. Two days from now, the cog Selaesori Qhoran will set sail for Qarth by way of
New Ghis, carrying tin and iron, bales of wool and lace, fifty Myrish carpets, a corpse pickled in brine,
twenty jars of dragon peppers, and a red priest. Be on her when she sails.
We will, said Tyrion, and thank you.
Ser Jorah frowned. Qarth is not our destination.
She will never reach Qarth. Benerro has seen it in his fires. The crone smiled a vulpine smile.
As you say. Tyrion grinned. If I were Volantene, and free, and had the blood, youd have my
vote for triarch, my lady.
I am no lady, the widow replied, just Vogarros whore. You want to be gone from here before
the tigers come. Should you reach your queen, give her a message from the slaves of Old Volantis. She
touched the faded scar upon her wrinkled cheek, where her tears had been cut away. Tell her we are
waiting. Tell her to come soon.
JON
When he heard the order, Ser Allisers mouth twisted into a semblance of a smile, but his eyes
remained as cold and hard as flint. So the bastard boy sends me out to die.
Die, cried Mormonts raven. Die, die, die.
You are not helping. Jon swatted the bird away. The bastard boy is sending you out to range. To
find our foes and kill them if need be. You are skilled with a blade. You were master-at-arms, here and at
Eastwatch.
Thorne touched the hilt of his longsword. Aye. I have squandered a third of my life trying to
teach the rudiments of swordplay to churls, muttonheads, and knaves. Small good that will do me in
those woods.
Dywen will be with you, and another seasoned ranger.
Well learn you what you need t know, ser, Dywen told Thorne, cackling. Teach you how t
wipe your highborn arse with leaves, just like a proper ranger.

Kedge Whiteye laughed at that, and Black Jack Bulwer spat. Ser Alliser only said, You would like
me to refuse. Then you could hack off my head, same as you did for Slynt. Ill not give you that pleasure,
bastard. Youd best pray that its a wildling blade that kills me, though. The ones the Others kill dont
stay dead  and they remember. Im coming back, Lord Snow.
I pray you do. Jon would never count Ser Alliser Thorne amongst his friends, but he was still a
brother. No one ever said you had to like your brothers.
It was no easy thing to send men into the wild, knowing that the chances were good that they
might never return. They are all seasoned men, Jon told himself  but his uncle Benjen and his rangers
had been seasoned men as well, and the haunted forest had swallowed them up without a trace. When
two of them finally came straggling back to the Wall, it had been as wights. Not for the first time, or the
last, Jon Snow found himself wondering what had become of Benjen Stark. Perhaps the rangers will
come upon some sign of them, he told himself, never truly believing it.
Dywen would lead one ranging, Black Jack Bulwer and Kedge Whit-eye the other two. They at
least were eager for the duty. Feels good to have a horse under me again, Dywen said at the gate,
sucking on his wooden teeth. Begging your pardon, mlord, but we were all o us getting splinters up
our arses from sitting about. No man in Castle Black knew the woods as well as Dywen did, the trees
and streams, the plants that could be eaten, the ways of predator and prey. Thorne is in better hands
than he deserves.
Jon watched the riders go from atop the Wallthree parties, each of three men, each carrying a
pair of ravens. From on high their garrons looked no larger than ants, and Jon could not tell one ranger
from another. He knew them, though. Every name was graven on his heart. Eight good men, he thought,
and one  well, we shall see.
When the last of the riders had disappeared into the trees, Jon Snow rode the winch cage down
with Dolorous Edd. A few scattered snowflakes were falling as they made their slow descent, dancing on
the gusty wind. One followed the cage down, drifting just beyond the bars. It was falling faster than they
were descending and from time to time would vanish beneath them. Then a gust of wind would catch it
and push it upward once again. Jon could have reached through the bars and caught it if he had wished.
I had a frightening dream last night, mlord, Dolorous Edd confessed. You were my steward,
fetching my food and cleaning up my leavings. I was lord commander, with never a moments peace.
Jon did not smile. Your nightmare, my life.
Cotter Pykes galleys were reporting ever-increasing numbers of free folk along the wooded
shores to the north and east of the Wall. Camps had been seen, half-built rafts, even the hull of a broken
cog that someone had begun repairing. The wildlings always vanished into the woods when seen, no
doubt to reemerge as soon as Pykes ships had passed. Meanwhile, Ser Denys Mallister was still seeing
fires in the night north of the Gorge. Both commanders were asking for more men.

And where am I to get more men? Jon had sent ten of the Moles Town wildlings to each of
them: green boys, old men, some wounded and infirm, but all capable of doing work of one sort or
another. Far from being pleased, Pyke and Mallister had both written back to complain. When I asked
for men, I had in mind men of the Nights Watch, trained and disciplined, whose loyalty I should never
have reason to doubt, wrote Ser Denys. Cotter Pyke was blunter. I could hang them from the Wall as a
warning to other wildlings to stay away, but I dont see any other use for them, Maester Harmune
wrote for him. I wouldnt trust such to clean my chamber pot, and ten is not enough.
The iron cage moved downward at the end of its long chain, creaking and rattling, until it finally
jerked to a halt a foot above the ground at the base of the Wall. Dolorous Edd pushed open the door
and hopped down, his boots breaking the crust of the last snow. Jon followed.
Outside the armory, Iron Emmett was still urging on his charges in the yard. The song of steel on
steel woke a hunger in Jon. It reminded him of warmer, simpler days, when he had been a boy at
Winterfell matching blades with Robb under the watchful eye of Ser Rodrik Cassel. Ser Rodrik too had
fallen, slain by Theon Turncloak and his ironmen as hed tried to retake Winterfell. The great stronghold
of House Stark was a scorched desolation. All my memories are poisoned.
When Iron Emmett spied him, he raised a hand and combat ceased. Lord Commander. How
may we serve you?
With your three best.
Emmett grinned. Arron. Emrick. Jace.
Horse and Hop-Robin fetched padding for the lord commander, along with a ringmail hauberk to
go over it, and greaves, gorget, and halfhelm. A black shield rimmed with iron for his left arm, a blunted
longsword for his right hand. The sword gleamed silvery grey in the dawn light, almost new. One of the
last to come from Donals forge. A pity he did not live long enough to put an edge on it. The blade was
shorter than Longclaw but made of common steel, which made it heavier. His blows would be a little
slower. It will serve. Jon turned to face his foes. Come.
Which one do you want first? asked Arron. All three of you. At once.
Three on one? Jace was incredulous. That wouldnt be fair. He was one of Conwys latest
bunch, a cobblers son from Fair Isle. Maybe that explained it.
True. Come here.
When he did, Jons blade slammed him alongside his head, knocking him off his feet. In the blink
of an eye the boy had a boot on his chest and a swordpoint at his throat. War is never fair, Jon told
him. Its two on one now, and youre dead.
When he heard gravel crunch, he knew the twins were coming. Those two will make rangers yet.
He spun, blocking Arrons cut with the edge of his shield and meeting Emricks with his sword. Those

arent spears, he shouted. Get in close. He went to the attack to show them how it was done. Emrick
first. He slashed at his head and shoulders, right and left and right again. The boy got his shield up and
tried a clumsy countercut. Jon slammed his own shield into Emricks, and brought him down with a blow
to the lower leg  none too soon, because Arron was on him, with a crunching cut to the back of his
thigh that sent him to one knee. That will leave a bruise. He caught the next cut on his shield, then
lurched back to his feet and drove Arron across the yard. Hes quick, he thought, as the longswords
kissed once and twice and thrice, but he needs to get stronger. When he saw relief in Arrons eyes, he
knew Emrick was behind him. He came around and dealt him a cut to the back of the shoulders that sent
him crashing into his brother. By that time Jace had found his feet, so Jon put him down again. I hate it
when dead men get up. Youll feel the same the day you meet a wight. Stepping back, he lowered his
sword.
The big crow can peck the little crows, growled a voice behind him, but has he belly enough
to fight a man?
Rattleshirt was leaning against a wall. A coarse stubble covered his sunken cheeks, and thin
brown hair was blowing across his little yellow eyes.
You flatter yourself, Jon said. Aye, but Id flatten you.
Stannis burned the wrong man.
No. The wildling grinned at him through a mouth of brown and broken teeth. He burned the
man he had to burn, for all the world to see. We all do what we have to do, Snow. Even kings.
Emmett, find some armor for him. I want him in steel, not old bones. Once clad in mail and
plate, the Lord of Bones seemed to stand a little straighter. He seemed taller too, his shoulders thicker
and more powerful than Jon would have thought. Its the armor, not the man, he told himself. Even Sam
could appear almost formidable, clad head to heel in Donal Noyes steel. The wildling waved away the
shield Horse offered him. Instead he asked for a two-handed sword. Theres a sweet sound, he said,
slashing at the air. Flap closer, Snow. I mean to make your feathers fly.
Jon rushed him hard.
Rattleshirt took a step backwards and met the charge with a two-handed slash. If Jon had not
interposed his shield, it might have staved his breast-plate in and broken half his ribs. The force of the
blow staggered him for a moment and sent a solid jolt up his arm. He hits harder than I would have
thought. His quickness was another unpleasant surprise. They circled round each other, trading blow for
blow. The Lord of Bones gave as good as he was getting. By rights the two-handed greatsword should
have been a deal more cumbersome than Jons longsword, but the wildling wielded it with blinding
speed.
Iron Emmetts fledglings cheered their lord commander at the start, but the relentless speed of
Rattleshirts attack soon beat them down to silence. He cannot keep this up for long, Jon told himself as
he stopped another blow. The impact made him grunt. Even dulled, the greatsword cracked his

pinewood shield and bent the iron rim. He will tire soon. He must. Jon slashed at the wildlings face, and
Rattleshirt pulled back his head. He hacked down at Rattleshirts calf, only to have him deftly leap the
blade. The greatsword crashed down onto Jons shoulder, hard enough to ding his pouldron and numb
the arm beneath. Jon backed away. The Lord of Bones came after, chortling. He has no shield, Jon
reminded himself, and that monster swords too cumbersome for parries. I should be landing two blows
for every one of his.
Somehow he wasnt, though, and the blows he did land were having no effect. The wildling
always seemed to be moving away or sliding sideways, so Jons longsword glanced off a shoulder or an
arm. Before long he found himself giving more ground, trying to avoid the others crashing cuts and
failing half the time. His shield had been reduced to kindling. He shook it off his arm. Sweat was running
down his face and stinging his eyes beneath his helm. He is too strong and too quick, he realized, and
with that greatsword he has weight and reach on me. It would have been a different fight if Jon had
been armed with Longclaw, but 
His chance came on Rattleshirts next backswing. Jon threw himself forward, bulling into the
other man, and they went down together, legs entangled. Steel slammed on steel. Both men lost their
swords as they rolled on the hard ground. The wildling drove a knee between Jons legs. Jon lashed out
with a mailed fist. Somehow Rattleshirt ended up on top, with Jons head in his hands. He smashed it
against the ground, then wrenched his visor open. If I had me a dagger, youd be less an eye by now,
he snarled, before Horse and Iron Emmett dragged him off the lord commanders chest. Let go o me,
you bloody crows, he roared.
Jon struggled to one knee. His head was ringing, and his mouth was full of blood. He spat it out
and said, Well fought.
You flatter yourself, crow. I never broke a sweat.
Next time you will, said Jon. Dolorous Edd helped him to his feet and unbuckled his helm. It
had acquired several deep dents that had not been there when hed donned it. Release him. Jon
tossed the helm to Hop-Robin, who dropped it.
My lord, said Iron Emmett, he threatened your life, we all heard. He said that if he had a
dagger
He does have a dagger. Right there on his belt. There is always someone quicker and stronger,
Ser Rodrik had once told Jon and Robb. Hes the man you want to face in the yard before you need to
face his like upon a battlefield.
Lord Snow? a soft voice said.
He turned to find Clydas standing beneath the broken archway, a parchment in his hand. From
Stannis? Jon had been hoping for some word from the king. The Nights Watch took no part, he knew,
and it should not matter to him which king emerged triumphant. Somehow it did. Is it Deepwood?

No, my lord. Clydas thrust the parchment forward. It was tightly rolled and sealed, with a
button of hard pink wax. Only the Dreadfort uses pink sealing wax. Jon ripped off his gauntlet, took the
letter, cracked the seal. When he saw the signature, he forgot the battering Rattleshirt had given him.
Ramsay Bolton, Lord of the Hornwood, it read, in a huge, spiky hand. The brown ink came away
in flakes when Jon brushed it with his thumb. Beneath Boltons signature, Lord Dustin, Lady Cerwyn, and
four Ryswells had appended their own marks and seals. A cruder hand had drawn the giant of House
Umber. Might we know what it says, my lord? asked Iron Emmett.
Jon saw no reason not to tell him. Moat Cailin is taken. The flayed corpses of the ironmen have
been nailed to posts along the kingsroad. Roose Bolton summons all leal lords to Barrowton, to affirm
their loyalty to the Iron Throne and celebrate his sons wedding to  His heart seemed to stop for a
moment. No, that is not possible. She died in Kings Landing, with Father.
Lord Snow? Clydas peered at him closely with his dim pink eyes. Are you  unwell? You
seem 
Hes to marry Arya Stark. My little sister. Jon could almost see her in that moment, long-faced
and gawky, all knobby knees and sharp elbows, with her dirty face and tangled hair. They would wash
the one and comb the other, he did not doubt, but he could not imagine Arya in a wedding gown, nor
Ramsay Boltons bed. No matter how afraid she is, she will not show it. If he tries to lay a hand on her,
shell fight him.
Your sister, Iron Emmett said, how old is 
By now shed be eleven, Jon thought. Still a child. I have no sister. Only brothers. Only you.
Lady Catelyn would have rejoiced to hear those words, he knew. That did not make them easier to say.
His fingers closed around the parchment. Would that they could crush Ramsay Boltons throat as easily.
Clydas cleared his throat. Will there be an answer?
Jon shook his head and walked away.
By nightfall the bruises that Rattleshirt had given him had turned purple. Theyll go yellow
before they fade away, he told Mormonts raven. Ill look as sallow as the Lord of Bones.
Bones, the bird agreed. Bones, bones.
He could hear the faint murmur of voices coming from outside, although the sound was too
weak to make out words. They sound a thousand leagues away. It was Lady Melisandre and her
followers at their nightfire. Every night at dusk the red woman led her followers in their twilight prayer,
asking her red god to see them through the dark. For the night is dark and full of terrors. With Stannis
and most of the queens men gone, her flock was much diminished; half a hundred of the free folk up
from Moles Town, the handful of guards the king had left her, perhaps a dozen black brothers who had
taken her red god for their own.

Jon felt as stiff as a man of sixty years. Dark dreams, he thought, and guilt. His thoughts kept
returning to Arya. There is no way I can help her. I put all kin aside when I said my words. If one of my
men told me his sister was in peril, I would tell him that was no concern of his. Once a man had said the
words his blood was black. Black as a bastards heart. Hed had Mikken make a sword for Arya once, a
bravos blade, made small to fit her hand. Needle. He wondered if she still had it. Stick them with the
pointy end, hed told her, but if she tried to stick the Bastard, it could mean her life.
Snow, muttered Lord Mormonts raven. Snow, snow.
Suddenly he could not suffer it a moment longer.
He found Ghost outside his door, gnawing on the bone of an ox to get at the marrow. When did
you get back? The direwolf got to his feet, abandoning the bone to come padding after Jon.
Mully and Kegs stood inside the doors, leaning on their spears. A cruel cold out there, mlord,
warned Mully through his tangled orange beard. Will you be out long?
No. I just need a breath of air. Jon stepped out into the night. The sky was full of stars, and the
wind was gusting along the Wall. Even the moon looked cold; there were goosebumps all across its face.
Then the first gust caught him, slicing through his layers of wool and leather to set his teeth to
chattering. He stalked across the yard, into the teeth of that wind. His cloak flapped loudly from his
shoulders. Ghost came after. Where am I going? What am I doing? Castle Black was still and silent, its
halls and towers dark. My seat, Jon Snow reflected. My hall, my home, my command. A ruin.
In the shadow of the Wall, the direwolf brushed up against his fingers. For half a heartbeat the
night came alive with a thousand smells, and Jon Snow heard the crackle of the crust breaking on a
patch of old snow. Someone was behind him, he realized suddenly. Someone who smelled warm as a
summer day.
When he turned he saw Ygritte.
She stood beneath the scorched stones of the Lord Commanders Tower, cloaked in darkness
and in memory. The light of the moon was in her hair, her red hair kissed by fire. When he saw that,
Jons heart leapt into his mouth. Ygritte, he said.
Lord Snow. The voice was Melisandres.
Surprise made him recoil from her. Lady Melisandre. He took a step backwards. I mistook you
for someone else. At night all robes are grey. Yet suddenly hers were red. He did not understand how
he could have taken her for Ygritte. She was taller, thinner, older, though the moonlight washed years
from her face. Mist rose from her nostrils, and from pale hands naked to the night. You will freeze your
fingers off, Jon warned.
If that is the will of Rhllor. Nights powers cannot touch one whose heart is bathed in gods
holy fire.

You heart does not concern me. Just your hands.
The heart is all that matters. Do not despair, Lord Snow. Despair is a weapon of the enemy,
whose name may not be spoken. Your sister is not lost to you.
I have no sister. The words were knives. What do you know of my heart, priestess? What do
you know of my sister?
Melisandre seemed amused. What is her name, this little sister that you do not have?
Arya. His voice was hoarse. My half-sister, truly 
 for you are bastard born. I had not forgotten. I have seen your sister in my fires, fleeing from
this marriage they have made for her. Coming here, to you. A girl in grey on a dying horse, I have seen it
plain as day. It has not happened yet, but it will. She gazed at Ghost. May I touch your  wolf?
The thought made Jon uneasy. Best not.
He will not harm me. You call him Ghost, yes?
Yes, but 
Ghost. Melisandre made the word a song.
The direwolf padded toward her. Wary, he stalked about her in a circle, sniffing. When she held
out her hand he smelled that too, then shoved his nose against her fingers.
Jon let out a white breath. He is not always so 
 warm? Warmth calls to warmth, Jon Snow. Her eyes were two red stars, shining in the dark.
At her throat, her ruby gleamed, a third eye glowing brighter than the others. Jon had seen Ghosts eyes
blazing red the same way, when they caught the light just right. Ghost, he called. To me.
The direwolf looked at him as if he were a stranger.
Jon frowned in disbelief. Thats  queer.
You think so? She knelt and scratched Ghost behind his ear. Your Wall is a queer place, but
there is power here, if you will use it. Power in you, and in this beast. You resist it, and that is your
mistake. Embrace it. Use it.
I am not a wolf, he thought. And how would I do that?
I can show you. Melisandre draped one slender arm over Ghost, and the direwolf licked her
face. The Lord of Light in his wisdom made us male and female, two parts of a greater whole. In our
joining there is power. Power to make life. Power to make light. Power to cast shadows.

Shadows. The world seemed darker when he said it. Every man who walks the earth casts a
shadow on the world. Some are thin and weak, others long and dark. You should look behind you, Lord
Snow. The moon has kissed you and etched your shadow upon the ice twenty feet tall.
Jon glanced over his shoulder. The shadow was there, just as she had said, etched in moonlight
against the Wall. A girl in grey on a dying horse, he thought. Coming here, to you. Arya. He turned back
to the red priest-ess. Jon could feel her warmth. She has power. The thought came unbidden, seizing
him with iron teeth, but this was not a woman he cared to be indebted to, not even for his little sister.
Dalla told me something once. Vals sister, Mance Rayders wife. She said that sorcery was a sword
without a hilt. There is no safe way to grasp it.
A wise woman. Melisandre rose, her red robes stirring in the wind. A sword without a hilt is
still a sword, though, and a sword is a fine thing to have when foes are all about. Hear me now, Jon
Snow. Nine crows flew into the white wood to find your foes for you. Three of them are dead. They have
not died yet, but their death is out there waiting for them, and they ride to meet it. You sent them forth
to be your eyes in the darkness, but they will be eyeless when they return to you. I have seen their pale
dead faces in my flames. Empty sockets, weeping blood. She pushed her red hair back, and her red eyes
shone. You do not believe me. You will. The cost of that belief will be three lives. A small price to pay
for wisdom, some might say  but not one you had to pay. Remember that when you behold the blind
and ravaged faces of your dead. And come that day, take my hand. The mist rose from her pale flesh,
and for a moment it seemed as if pale, sorcerous flames were playing about her fingers. Take my
hand, she said again, and let me save your sister.
DAVOS
Even in the gloom of the Wolfs Den, Davos Seaworth could sense that something was awry this
morning.
He woke to the sound of voices and crept to the door of his cell, but the wood was too thick and
he could not make out the words. Dawn had come, but not the porridge Garth brought him every morn
to break his fast. That made him anxious. All the days were much the same inside the Wolfs Den, and
any change was usually for the worse. This may be the day I die. Garth may be sitting with a whetstone
even now, to put an edge on Lady Lu.
The onion knight had not forgotten Wyman Manderlys last words to him. Take this creature to
the Wolfs Den and cut off head and hands, the fat lord had commanded. I shall not be able to eat a bite
until I see this smugglers head upon a spike, with an onion shoved between his lying teeth. Every night
Davos went to sleep with those words in his head, and every morn he woke to them. And should he
forget, Garth was always pleased to remind him. Dead man was his name for Davos. When he came by
in the morning, it was always, Here, porridge for the dead man. At night it was, Blow out the candle,
dead man.

Once Garth brought his ladies by to introduce them to the dead man. The Whore dont look
like much, he said, fondling a rod of cold black iron, but when I heat her up red-hot and let her touch
your cock, youll cry for mother. And this heres my Lady Lu. Its her wholl take your head and hands,
when Lord Wyman sends down word. Davos had never seen a bigger axe than Lady Lu, nor one with a
sharper edge. Garth spent his days honing her, the other keepers said. I will not plead for mercy, Davos
resolved. He would go to his death a knight, asking only that they take his head before his hands. Even
Garth would not be so cruel as to deny him that, he hoped.
The sounds coming through the door were faint and muffled. Davos rose and paced his cell. As
cells went, it was large and queerly comfortable. He suspected it might once have been some lordlings
bedchamber. It was thrice the size of his captains cabin on Black Bessa, and even larger than the cabin
Salladhor Saan enjoyed on his Valyrian. Though its only window had been bricked in years before, one
wall still boasted a hearth big enough to hold a kettle, and there was an actual privy built into a corner
nook. The floor was made of warped planks full of splinters, and his sleeping pallet smelled of mildew,
but those discomforts were mild compared to what Davos had expected.
The food had come as a surprise as well. In place of gruel and stale bread and rotten meat, the
usual dungeon fare, his keepers brought him fresh-caught fish, bread still warm from the oven, spiced
mutton, turnips, carrots, even crabs. Garth was none too pleased by that. The dead should not eat
better than the living, he complained, more than once. Davos had furs to keep him warm by night,
wood to feed his fire, clean clothing, a greasy tallow candle. When he asked for paper, quill, and ink,
Therry brought them the next day. When he asked for a book, so he might keep at his reading, Therry
turned up with The Seven-Pointed Star.
For all its comforts, though, his cell remained a cell. Its walls were solid stone, so thick that he
could hear nothing of the outside world. The door was oak and iron, and his keepers kept it barred. Four
sets of heavy iron fetters dangled from the ceiling, waiting for the day Lord Manderly decided to chain
him up and give him over to the Whore. Today may be that day. The next time Garth opens my door, it
may not be to bring me porridge.
His belly was rumbling, a sure sign that the morning was creeping past, and still no sign of food.
The worst part is not the dying, its not knowing when or how. He had seen the inside of a few gaols and
dungeons in his smuggling days, but those hed shared with other prisoners, so there was always
someone to talk with, to share your fears and hopes. Not here. Aside from his keepers, Davos Seaworth
had the Wolfs Den to himself.
He knew there were true dungeons down in the castle cellars oubliettes and torture chambers
and dank pits where huge black rats scrab-bled in the darkness. His gaolers claimed all of them were
unoccupied at present. Only us here, Onion, Ser Bartimus had told him. He was the chief gaoler, a
cadaverous one-legged knight, with a scarred face and a blind eye. When Ser Bartimus was in his cups
(and Ser Bartimus was in his cups most every day), he liked to boast of how he had saved Lord Wymans
life at the Battle of the Trident. The Wolfs Den was his reward.

The rest of us consisted of a cook Davos never saw, six guardsmen in the ground-floor
barracks, a pair of washerwomen, and the two turnkeys who looked after the prisoner. Therry was the
young one, the son of one of the washerwomen, a boy of ten-and-four. The old one was Garth, huge
and bald and taciturn, who wore the same greasy leather jerkin every day and always seemed to have a
glower on his face.
His years as a smuggler had given Davos Seaworth a sense of when a man was wrong, and Garth
was wrong. The onion knight took care to hold his tongue in Garths presence. With Therry and Ser
Bartimus he was less reticent. He thanked them for his food, encouraged them to talk about their hopes
and histories, answered their questions politely, and never pressed too hard with queries of his own.
When he made requests, they were small ones: a basin of water and a bit of soap, a book to read, more
candles. Most such favors were granted, and Davos was duly grateful.
Neither man would speak about Lord Manderly or King Stannis or the Freys, but they would talk
of other things. Therry wanted to go off to war when he was old enough, to fight in battles and become
a knight. He liked to complain about his mother too. She was bedding two of the guardsmen, he
confided. The men were on different watches and neither knew about the other, but one day one man
or tother would puzzle it out, and then there would be blood. Some nights the boy would even bring a
skin of wine to the cell and ask Davos about the smugglers life as they drank.
Ser Bartimus had no interest in the world outside, or indeed anything that had happened since
he lost his leg to a riderless horse and a maesters saw. He had come to love the Wolfs Den, however,
and liked nothing more than to talk about its long and bloody history. The Den was much older than
White Harbor, the knight told Davos. It had been raised by King Jon Stark to defend the mouth of the
White Knife against raiders from the sea. Many a younger son of the King in the North had made his seat
there, many a brother, many an uncle, many a cousin. Some passed the castle to their own sons and
grandsons, and offshoot branches of House Stark had arisen; the Greystarks had lasted the longest,
holding the Wolfs Den for five centuries, until they presumed to join the Dreadfort in rebellion against
the Starks of Winterfell.
After their fall, the castle had passed through many other hands. House Flint held it for a
century, House Locke for almost two. Slates, Longs, Holts, and Ashwoods had held sway here, charged
by Winterfell to keep the river safe. Reavers from the Three Sisters took the castle once, making it their
toehold in the north. During the wars between Winterfell and the Vale, it was besieged by Osgood
Arryn, the Old Falcon, and burned by his son, the one remembered as the Talon. When old King Edrick
Stark had grown too feeble to defend his realm, the Wolfs Den was captured by slavers from the
Stepstones. They would brand their captives with hot irons and break them to the whip before shipping
them off across the sea, and these same black stone walls bore witness.
Then a long cruel winter fell, said Ser Bartimus. The White Knife froze hard, and even the firth
was icing up. The winds came howling from the north and drove them slavers inside to huddle round
their fires, and whilst they warmed themselves the new king come down on them. Brandon Stark this
was, Edrick Snowbeards great-grandson, him that men called Ice Eyes. He took the Wolfs Den back,

stripped the slavers naked, and gave them to the slaves hed found chained up in the dungeons. Its said
they hung their entrails in the branches of the heart tree, as an offering to the gods. The old gods, not
these new ones from the south. Your Seven dont know winter, and winter dont know them.
Davos could not argue with the truth of that. From what he had seen at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea,
he did not care to know winter either. What gods do you keep? he asked the one-legged knight.
The old ones. When Ser Bartimus grinned, he looked just like a skull. Me and mine were here
before the Manderlys. Like as not, my own forebears strung those entrails through the tree.
I never knew that northmen made blood sacrifice to their heart trees.
Theres much and more you southrons do not know about the north, Ser Bartimus replied.
He was not wrong. Davos sat beside his candle and looked at the letters he had scratched out
word by word during the days of his confinement. I was a better smuggler than a knight, he had written
to his wife, a better knight than a Kings Hand, a better Kings Hand than a husband. I am so sorry.
Marya, I have loved you. Please forgive the wrongs I did you. Should Stannis lose his war, our lands will
be lost as well. Take the boys across the narrow sea to Braavos and teach them to think kindly of me, if
you would. Should Stannis gain the Iron Throne, House Seaworth will survive and Devan will remain at
court. He will help you place the other boys with noble lords, where they can serve as pages and squires
and win their knighthoods. It was the best counsel he had for her, though he wished it sounded wiser.
He had written to each of his three surviving sons as well, to help them remember the father
who had bought them names with his fingertips. His notes to Steffon and young Stannis were short and
stiff and awkward; if truth be told, he did not know them half as well as he had his older boys, the ones
whod burned or drowned upon the Blackwater. To Devan he wrote more, telling him how proud he was
to see his own son as a kings squire and reminding him that as the eldest it was his duty to protect his
lady mother and his younger brothers. Tell His Grace I did my best, he ended. I am sorry that I failed him.
I lost my luck when I lost my finger-bones, the day the river burned below Kings Landing.
Davos shuffled through the letters slowly, reading each one over several times, wondering
whether he should change a word here or add one there. A man should have more to say when staring
at the end of his life, he thought, but the words came hard. I did not do so ill, he tried to tell himself. I
rose up from Flea Bottom to be a Kings Hand, and I learned to read and write.
He was still hunched over the letters when he heard the sound of iron keys rattling on a ring.
Half a heartbeat later, the door to his cell came swinging open.
The man who stepped through the door was not one of his gaolers. He was tall and haggard,
with a deeply lined face and a shock of grey-brown hair. A longsword hung from his hip, and his
deep-dyed scarlet cloak was fastened at the shoulder with a heavy silver brooch in the shape of a mailed
fist. Lord Seaworth, he said, we do not have much time. Please, come with me.

Davos eyed the stranger warily. The please confused him. Men about to lose their heads and
hands were not oft accorded such courtesies. Who are you?
Robett Glover, if it please, my lord.
Glover. Your seat was Deepwood Motte.
My brother Galbarts seat. It was and is, thanks to your King Stannis. He has taken Deepwood
back from the iron bitch who stole it and offers to restore it to its rightful owners. Much and more has
happened whilst you have been confined within these walls, Lord Davos. Moat Cailin has fallen, and
Roose Bolton has returned to the north with Ned Starks younger daughter. A host of Freys came with
him. Bolton has sent forth ravens, summoning all the lords of the north to Barrowton. He demands
homage and hostages  and witnesses to the wedding of Arya Stark and his bastard Ramsay Snow, by
which match the Boltons mean to lay claim to Winterfell. Now, will you come with me, or no?
What choice do I have, my lord? Come with you, or remain with Garth and Lady Lu?
Who is Lady Lu? One of the washerwomen? Glover was growing impatient. All will be
explained if you will come.
Davos rose to his feet. If I should die, I beseech my lord to see that my letters are delivered.
You have my word on that  though if you die, it will not be at Glovers hands, nor Lord
Wymans. Quickly now, with me.
Glover led him along a darkened hall and down a flight of worn steps. They crossed the castles
godswood, where the heart tree had grown so huge and tangled that it had choked out all the oaks and
elms and birch and sent its thick, pale limbs crashing through the walls and windows that looked down
on it. Its roots were as thick around as a mans waist, its trunk so wide that the face carved into it looked
fat and angry. Beyond the weir-wood, Glover opened a rusted iron gate and paused to light a torch.
When it was blazing red and hot, he took Davos down more steps into a barrel-vaulted cellar where the
weeping walls were crusted white with salt, and seawater sloshed beneath their feet with every step.
They passed through several cellars, and rows of small, damp, foul-smelling cells very different from the
room where Davos had been confined. Then there was a blank stone wall that turned when Glover
pushed on it. Beyond was a long narrow tunnel and still more steps. These led up.
Where are we? asked Davos as they climbed. His words echoed faintly though the darkness.
The steps beneath the steps. The passage runs beneath the Castle Stair up to the New Castle. A
secret way. It would not do for you to be seen, my lord. You are supposed to be dead.
Porridge for the dead man. Davos climbed.
They emerged through another wall, but this one was lath and plaster on the far side. The room
beyond was snug and warm and comfortably furnished, with a Myrish carpet on the floor and beeswax
candles burning on a table. Davos could hear pipes and fiddles playing, not far away. On the wall hung a

sheepskin with a map of the north painted across it in faded colors. Beneath the map sat Wyman
Manderly, the colossal Lord of White Harbor.
Please sit. Lord Manderly was richly garbed. His velvet doublet was a soft blue-green,
embroidered with golden thread at hem and sleeves and collar. His mantle was ermine, pinned at the
shoulder with a golden trident. Are you hungry?
No, my lord. Your gaolers have fed me well.
There is wine, if you have a thirst.
I will treat with you, my lord. My king commanded that of me. I do not have to drink with you.
Lord Wyman sighed. I have treated you most shamefully, I know. I had my reasons, but 
please, sit and drink, I beg you. Drink to my boys safe return. Wylis, my eldest son and heir. He is home.
That is the welcoming feast you hear. In the Mermans Court they are eating lamprey pie and venison
with roasted chestnuts. Wynafryd is dancing with the Frey she is to marry. The other Freys are raising
cups of wine to toast our friendship.
Beneath the music, Davos could hear the murmur of many voices, the clatter of cups and
platters. He said nothing.
I have just come from the high table, Lord Wyman went on. I have eaten too much, as ever,
and all White Harbor knows my bowels are bad. My friends of Frey will not question a lengthy visit to
the privy, we hope. He turned his cup over. There. You will drink and I will not. Sit. Time is short, and
there is much we need to say. Robett, wine for the Hand, if you will be so good. Lord Davos, you will not
know, but you are dead.
Robett Glover filled a wine cup and offered it to Davos. He took it, sniffed it, drank. How did I
die, if I may ask?
By the axe. Your head and hands were mounted above the Seal Gate, with your face turned so
your eyes looked out across the harbor. By now you are well rotted, though we dipped your head in tar
before we set it upon the spike. Carrion crows and seabirds squabbled over your eyes, they say.
Davos shifted uncomfortably. It was a queer feeling, being dead. If it please my lord, who died
in my place?
Does it matter? You have a common face, Lord Davos. I hope my saying so does not offend you.
The man had your coloring, a nose of the same shape, two ears that were not dissimilar, a long beard
that could be trimmed and shaped like yours. You can be sure we tarred him well, and the onion shoved
between his teeth served to twist the features. Ser Bartimus saw that the fingers of his left hand were
shortened, the same as yours. The man was a criminal, if that gives you any solace. His dying may
accomplish more good than anything he ever did whilst living. My lord, I bear you no ill will. The rancor I
showed you in the Mermans Court was a mummers farce put on to please our friends of Frey.

My lord should take up a life of mummery, said Davos. You and yours were most convincing.
Your good-daughter seemed to want me dead most earnestly, and the little girl 
Wylla. Lord Wyman smiled. Did you see how brave she was? Even when I threatened to have
her tongue out, she reminded me of the debt White Harbor owes to the Starks of Winterfell, a debt that
can never be repaid. Wylla spoke from the heart, as did Lady Leona. Forgive her if you can, my lord. She
is a foolish, frightened woman, and Wylis is her life. Not every man has it in him to be Prince Aemon the
Dragonknight or Symeon Star-Eyes, and not every woman can be as brave as my Wylla and her sister
Wynafryd  who did know, yet played her own part fearlessly.
When treating with liars, even an honest man must lie. I did not dare defy Kings Landing so
long as my last living son remained a captive. Lord Tywin Lannister wrote me himself to say that he had
Wylis. If I would have him freed unharmed, he told me, I must repent my treason, yield my city, declare
my loyalty to the boy king on the Iron Throne  and bend my knee to Roose Bolton, his Warden of the
North. Should I refuse, Wylis would die a traitors death, White Harbor would be stormed and sacked,
and my people would suffer the same fate as the Reynes of Castamere.
I am fat, and many think that makes me weak and foolish. Mayhaps Tywin Lannister was one
such. I sent him back a raven to say that I would bend my knee and open my gates after my son was
returned, but not before. There the matter stood when Tywin died. Afterward the Freys turned up with
Wendels bones  to make a peace and seal it with a marriage pact, they claimed, but I was not about to
give them what they wanted until I had Wylis, safe and whole, and they were not about to give me Wylis
until I proved my loyalty. Your arrival gave me the means to do that. That was the reason for the
discourtesy I showed you in the Mermans Court, and for the head and hands rotting above the Seal
Gate.
You took a great risk, my lord, Davos said. If the Freys had seen through your deception 
I took no risk at all. If any of the Freys had taken it upon themselves to climb my gate for a close
look at the man with the onion in his mouth, I would have blamed my gaolers for the error and
produced you to appease them.
Davos felt a shiver up his spine. I see.
I hope so. You have sons of your own, you said.
Three, thought Davos, though I fathered seven. Soon I must return to the feast to toast my
friends of Frey, Manderly continued. They watch me, ser. Day and night their eyes are on me, noses
sniffing for some whiff of treachery. You saw them, the arrogant Ser Jared and his nephew Rhaegar, that
smirking worm who wears a dragons name. Behind them both stands Symond, clinking coins. That one
has bought and paid for several of my servants and two of my knights. One of his wifes handmaids has
found her way into the bed of my own fool. If Stannis wonders that my letters say so little, it is because I
dare not even trust my maester. Theomore is all head and no heart. You heard him in my hall. Maesters
are supposed to put aside old loyalties when they don their chains, but I cannot forget that Theomore

was born a Lannister of Lannisport and claims some distant kinship to the Lannisters of Casterly Rock.
Foes and false friends are all around me, Lord Davos. They infest my city like roaches, and at night I feel
them crawling over me. The fat mans fingers coiled into a fist, and all his chins trembled. My son
Wendel came to the Twins a guest. He ate Lord Walders bread and salt, and hung his sword upon the
wall to feast with friends. And they murdered him. Murdered, I say, and may the Freys choke upon their
fables. I drink with Jared, jape with Symond, promise Rhaegar the hand of my own beloved
granddaughter  but never think that means I have forgotten. The north remembers, Lord Davos. The
north remembers, and the mummers farce is almost done. My son is home.
Something about the way Lord Wyman said that chilled Davos to the bone. If it is justice that
you want, my lord, look to King Stannis. No man is more just.
Robett Glover broke in to add, Your loyalty does you honor, my lord, but Stannis Baratheon
remains your king, not our own.
Your own king is dead, Davos reminded them, murdered at the Red Wedding beside Lord
Wymans son.
The Young Wolf is dead, Manderly allowed, but that brave boy was not Lord Eddards only
son. Robett, bring the lad.
At once, my lord. Glover slipped out the door.
The lad? Was it possible that one of Robb Starks brothers had survived the ruin of Winterfell?
Did Manderly have a Stark heir hidden away in his castle? A found boy or a feigned boy? The north
would rise for either, he suspected  but Stannis Baratheon would never make common cause with an
imposter.
The lad who followed Robett Glover through the door was not a Stark, nor could he ever hope
to pass for one. He was older than the Young Wolfs murdered brothers, fourteen or fifteen by the look
of him, and his eyes were older still. Beneath a tangle of dark brown hair his face was almost feral, with
a wide mouth, sharp nose, and pointed chin. Who are you? Davos asked.
The boy looked to Robett Glover. He is a mute, but we have been teaching him his letters. He
learns quickly. Glover drew a dagger from his belt and gave it to the boy. Write your name for Lord
Seaworth.
There was no parchment in the chamber. The boy carved the letters into a wooden beam in the
wall. W  E  X. He leaned hard into the X. When he was done he flipped the dagger in the air, caught it,
and stood admiring his handiwork.
Wex is ironborn. He was Theon Greyjoys squire. Wex was at Winterfell. Glover sat. How
much does Lord Stannis know of what transpired at Winterfell?

Davos thought back on the tales theyd heard. Winterfell was captured by Theon Greyjoy, who
had once been Lord Starks ward. He had Starks two young sons put to death and mounted their heads
above the castle walls. When the northmen came to oust him, he put the entire castle to sword, down
to the last child, before he himself was slain by Lord Boltons bastard.
Not slain, said Glover. Captured, and carried back to the Dreadfort. The Bastard has been
flaying him.
Lord Wyman nodded. The tale you tell is one we all have heard, as full of lies as a puddings full
of raisins. It was the Bastard of Bolton who put Winterfell to the sword  Ramsay Snow, he was called
then, before the boy king made him a Bolton. Snow did not kill them all. He spared the women, roped
them together, and marched them to the Dreadfort for his sport.
His sport?
He is a great hunter, said Wyman Manderly, and women are his favorite prey. He strips them
naked and sets them loose in the woods. They have a half days start before he sets out after them with
hounds and horns. From time to time some wench escapes and lives to tell the tale. Most are less
fortunate. When Ramsay catches them he rapes them, flays them, feeds their corpses to his dogs, and
brings their skins back to the Dreadfort as trophies. If they have given him good sport, he slits their
throats before he skins them. Elsewise, tother way around.
Davos paled. Gods be good. How could any man
The evil is in his blood, said Robett Glover. He is a bastard born of rape. A Snow, no matter
what the boy king says.
Was ever snow so black? asked Lord Wyman. Ramsay took Lord Hornwoods lands by forcibly
wedding his widow, then locked her in a tower and forgot her. It is said she ate her own fingers in her
extremity  and the Lannister notion of kings justice is to reward her killer with Ned Starks little girl.
The Boltons have always been as cruel as they were cunning, but this one seems a beast in
human skin, said Glover.
The Lord of White Harbor leaned forward. The Freys are no better. They speak of wargs and
skinchangers and assert that it was Robb Stark who slew my Wendel. The arrogance of it! They do not
expect the north to believe their lies, not truly, but they think we must pretend to believe or die. Roose
Bolton lies about his part in the Red Wedding, and his bastard lies about the fall of Winterfell. And yet so
long as they held Wylis I had no choice but to eat all this excrement and praise the taste.
And now, my lord? asked Davos.
He had hoped to hear Lord Wyman say, And now I shall declare for King Stannis, but instead the
fat man smiled an odd, twinkling smile and said, And now I have a wedding to attend. I am too fat to sit
a horse, as any man with eyes can plainly see. As a boy I loved to ride, and as a young man I handled a

mount well enough to win some small acclaim in the lists, but those days are done. My body has
become a prison more dire than the Wolfs Den. Even so, I must go to Winterfell. Roose Bolton wants
me on my knees, and beneath the velvet courtesy he shows the iron mail. I shall go by barge and litter,
attended by a hundred knights and my good friends from the Twins. The Freys came here by sea. They
have no horses with them, so I shall present each of them with a palfrey as a guest gift. Do hosts still
give guest gifts in the south?
Some do, my lord. On the day their guest departs.
Perhaps you understand, then. Wyman Manderly lurched ponderously to his feet. I have
been building warships for more than a year. Some you saw, but there are as many more hidden up the
White Knife. Even with the losses I have suffered, I still command more heavy horse than any other lord
north of the Neck. My walls are strong, and my vaults are full of silver. Oldcastle and Widows Watch will
take their lead from me. My bannermen include a dozen petty lords and a hundred landed knights. I can
deliver King Stannis the allegiance of all the lands east of the White Knife, from Widows Watch and
Ramsgate to the Sheepshead Hills and the headwaters of the Broken Branch. All this I pledge to do if you
will meet my price.
I can bring your terms to the king, but
Lord Wyman cut him off. If you will meet my price, I said. Not Stannis. Its not a king I need but
a smuggler.
Robett Glover took up the tale. We may never know all that happened at Winterfell, when Ser
Rodrik Cassel tried to take the castle back from Theon Greyjoys ironmen. The Bastard of Bolton claims
that Greyjoy murdered Ser Rodrik during a parley. Wex says no. Until he learns more letters we will
never know half the truth  but he came to us knowing yes and no, and those can go a long way once
you find the right questions.
It was the Bastard who murdered Ser Rodrik and the men of Winterfell, said Lord Wyman. He
slew Greyjoys ironmen as well. Wex saw men cut down trying to yield. When we asked how he escaped,
he took a chunk of chalk and drew a tree with a face.
Davos thought about that. The old gods saved him?
After a fashion. He climbed the heart tree and hid himself amongst the leaves. Boltons men
searched the godswood twice and killed the men they found there, but none thought to clamber up into
the trees. Is that how it happened, Wex?
The boy flipped up Glovers dagger, caught it, nodded.
Glover said, He stayed up in the tree a long time. He slept amongst the branches, not daring to
descend. Finally he heard voices down beneath him.
The voices of the dead, said Wyman Manderly.

Wex held up five fingers, tapped each one with the dagger, then folded four away and tapped
the last again.
Six of them, asked Davos. There were six.
Two of them Ned Starks murdered sons.
How could a mute tell you that?
With chalk. He drew two boys  and two wolves.
The lad is ironborn, so he thought it best not to show himself, said Glover. He listened. The
six did not linger long amongst the ruins of Winterfell. Four went one way, two another. Wex stole after
the two, a woman and a boy. He must have stayed downwind, so the wolf would not catch his scent.
He knows where they went, Lord Wyman said.
Davos understood. You want the boy.
Roose Bolton has Lord Eddards daughter. To thwart him White Harbor must have Neds son 
and the direwolf. The wolf will prove the boy is who we say he is, should the Dreadfort attempt to deny
him. That is my price, Lord Davos. Smuggle me back my liege lord, and I will take Stannis Baratheon as
my king.
Old instinct made Davos Seaworth reach for his throat. His fingerbones had been his luck, and
somehow he felt he would have need of luck to do what Wyman Manderly was asking of him. The bones
were gone, though, so he said, You have better men than me in your service. Knights and lords and
maesters. Why would you need a smuggler? You have ships.
Ships, Lord Wyman agreed, but my crews are rivermen, or fisherfolk who have never sailed
beyond the Bite. For this I must have a man whos sailed in darker waters and knows how to slip past
dangers, unseen and unmolested.
Where is the boy? Somehow Davos knew he would not like the answer. Where is it you want
me to go, my lord?
Robett Glover said, Wex. Show him.
The mute flipped the dagger, caught it, then flung it end over end at the sheepskin map that
adorned Lord Wymans wall. It struck quivering. Then he grinned.
For half a heartbeat Davos considered asking Wyman Manderly to send him back to the Wolfs
Den, to Ser Bartimus with his tales and Garth with his lethal ladies. In the Den even prisoners ate
porridge in the morning. But there were other places in this world where men were known to break
their fast on human flesh.

DAENERYS
Each morning, from her western ramparts, the queen would count the sails on Slavers Bay.
Today she counted five-and-twenty, though some were far away and moving, so it was hard to
be certain. Sometimes she missed one, or counted one twice. What does it matter? A strangler only
needs ten fingers. All trade had stopped, and her fisherfolk did not dare put out into the bay. The
boldest still dropped a few lines into the river, though even that was hazardous; more remained tied up
beneath Meereens walls of many-colored brick.
There were ships from Meereen out in the bay too, warships and trading galleys whose captains
had taken them to sea when Danys host first laid siege to the city, now returned to augment the fleets
from Qarth, Tolos, and New Ghis.
Her admirals counsel had proved worse than useless. Let them see your dragons, Groleo said.
Let the Yunkishmen have a taste of fire, and the trade will flow again.
Those ships are strangling us, and all my admiral can do is talk of dragons, Dany said. You are
my admiral, are you not?
An admiral without ships.
Build ships.
Warships cannot be made from brick. The slavers burned every stand of timber within twenty
leagues of here.
Then ride out two-and-twenty leagues. I will give you wagons, workers, mules, whatever you
require.
I am a sailor, not a shipwright. I was sent to fetch Your Grace back to Pentos. Instead you
brought us here and tore my Saduleon to pieces for some nails and scraps of wood. I will never see her
like again. I may never see my home again, nor my old wife. It was not me who refused the ships this
Daxos offered. I cannot fight the Qartheen with fishing boats.
His bitterness dismayed her, so much so that Dany found herself wondering if the grizzled
Pentoshi could be one of her three betrayers. No, he is only an old man, far from home and sick at heart.
There must be something we can do.
Aye, and Ive told you what. These ships are made of rope and pitch and canvas, of Qohorik
pine and teak from Sothoros, old oak from Great Norvos, yew and ash and spruce. Wood, Your Grace.
Wood burns. The dragons
I will hear no more about my dragons. Leave me. Go pray to your Pentoshi gods for a storm to
sink our foes.

No sailor prays for storms, Your Grace.
I am tired of hearing what you will not do. Go.
Ser Barristan remained. Our stores are ample for the moment, he reminded her, and Your
Grace has planted beans and grapes and wheat. Your Dothraki have harried the slavers from the hills
and struck the shackles from their slaves. They are planting too, and will be bringing their crops to
Meereen to market. And you will have the friendship of Lhazar.
Daario won that for me, for all that it is worth. The Lamb Men. Would that lambs had teeth.
That would make the wolves more cautious, no doubt.
That made her laugh. How fare your orphans, ser?
The old knight smiled. Well, Your Grace. It is good of you to ask. The boys were his pride.
Four or five have the makings of knights. Perhaps as many as a dozen.
One would be enough if he were as true as you. The day might come soon when she would
have need of every knight. Will they joust for me? I should like that. Viserys had told her stories of the
tourneys he had witnessed in the Seven Kingdoms, but Dany had never seen a joust herself.
They are not ready, Your Grace. When they are, they will be pleased to demonstrate their
prowess.
I hope that day comes quickly. She would have kissed her good knight on the cheek, but just
then Missandei appeared beneath the arched doorway. Missandei?
Your Grace. Skahaz awaits your pleasure.
Send him up.
The Shavepate was accompanied by two of his Brazen Beasts. One wore a hawk mask, the other
the likeness of a jackal. Only their eyes could be seen behind the brass. Your Radiance, Hizdahr was
seen to enter the pyramid of Zhak last evening. He did not depart until well after dark.
How many pyramids has he visited? asked Dany. Eleven.
And how long since the last murder?
Six-and-twenty days. The Shavepates eyes brimmed with fury. It had been his notion to have
the Brazen Beasts follow her betrothed and take note of all his actions.
So far Hizdahr has made good on his promises.
How? The Sons of the Harpy have put down their knives, but why? Because the noble Hizdahr
asked sweetly? He is one of them, I tell you. Thats why they obey him. He may well be the Harpy.

If there is a Harpy. Skahaz was convinced that somewhere in Meereen the Sons of the Harpy
had a highborn overlord, a secret general commanding an army of shadows. Dany did not share his
belief. The Brazen Beasts had taken dozens of the Harpys Sons, and those who had survived their
capture had yielded names when questioned sharply  too many names, it seemed to her. It would
have been pleasant to think that all the deaths were the work of a single enemy who might be caught
and killed, but Dany suspected that the truth was otherwise. My enemies are legion. Hizdahr zo Loraq is
a persuasive man with many friends. And he is wealthy. Perhaps he has bought this peace for us with
gold, or convinced the other highborn that our marriage is in their best interests.
If he is not the Harpy, he knows him. I can find the truth of that easy enough. Give me your
leave to put Hizdahr to the question, and I will bring you a confession.
No, she said. I do not trust these confessions. Youve brought me too many of them, all of
them worthless.
Your Radiance
No, I said.
The Shavepates scowl turned his ugly face even uglier. A mistake. The Great Master Hizdahr
plays Your Worship for a fool. Do you want a serpent in your bed?
I want Daario in my bed, but I sent him away for the sake of you and yours. You may continue
to watch Hizdahr zo Loraq, but no harm is to come to him. Is that understood?
I am not deaf, Magnificence. I will obey. Skahaz drew a parchment scroll from his sleeve. Your
Worship should have a look at this. A list of all the Meereenese ships in the blockade, with their
captains. Great Masters all.
Dany studied the scroll. All the ruling families of Meereen were named: Hazkar, Merreq,
Quazzar, Zhak, Rhazdar, Ghazeen, Pahl, even Reznak and Loraq. What am I to do with a list of names?
Every man on that list has kin within the city. Sons and brothers, wives and daughters, mothers
and fathers. Let my Brazen Beasts seize them. Their lives will win you back those ships.
If I send the Brazen Beasts into the pyramids, it will mean open war inside the city. I have to
trust in Hizdahr. I have to hope for peace. Dany held the parchment above a candle and watched the
names go up in flame, while Skahaz glowered at her.
Afterward, Ser Barristan told her that her brother Rhaegar would have been proud of her. Dany
remembered the words Ser Jorah had spoken at Astapor: Rhaegar fought valiantly, Rhaegar fought
nobly, Rhaegar fought honorably. And Rhaegar died.
When she descended to the purple marble hall, she found it almost empty. Are there no
petitioners today? Dany asked Reznak mo Reznak. No one who craves justice or silver for a sheep?

No, Your Worship. The city is afraid.
There is nothing to fear.
But there was much and more to fear as she learned that evening. As her young hostages Miklaz
and Kezmya were laying out a simple supper of autumn greens and ginger soup for her, Irri came to tell
her that Galazza Galare had returned, with three Blue Graces from the temple. Grey Worm is come as
well, Khaleesi. They beg words with you, most urgently.
Bring them to my hall. And summon Reznak and Skahaz. Did the Green Grace say what this was
about?
Astapor, said Irri.
Grey Worm began the tale. He came out of the morning mists, a rider on a pale horse, dying.
His mare was staggering as she approached the city gates, her sides pink with blood and lather, her eyes
rolling with terror. Her rider called out, She is burning, she is burning, and fell from the saddle. This one
was sent for, and gave orders that the rider be brought to the Blue Graces. When your servants carried
him inside the gates, he cried out again, She is burning. Under his tokar he was a skeleton, all bones
and fevered flesh.
One of the Blue Graces took up the tale from there. The Unsullied brought this man to the
temple, where we stripped him and bathed him in cool water. His clothes were soiled, and my sisters
found half an arrow in his thigh. Though he had broken off the shaft, the head remained inside him, and
the wound had mortified, filling him with poisons. He died within the hour, still crying out that she was
burning.
 She is burning,  Daenerys repeated. Who is she?
Astapor, Your Radiance, said another of the Blue Graces. He said it, once. He said Astapor is
burning. 
It might have been his fever talking.
Your Radiance speaks wisely, said Galazza Galare, but Ezzara saw something else.
The Blue Grace called Ezzara folded her hands. My queen, she murmured, his fever was not
brought on by the arrow. He had soiled himself, not once but many times. The stains reached to his
knees, and there was dried blood amongst his excrement.
His horse was bleeding, Grey Worm said.
This thing is true, Your Grace, the eunuch confirmed. The pale mare was bloody from his
spur.
That may be so, Your Radiance, said Ezzara, but this blood was mingled with his stool. It
stained his smallclothes.

He was bleeding from the bowels, said Galazza Galare. We cannot be certain, said Ezzara,
but it may be that Meereen has more to fear than the spears of the Yunkaii.
We must pray, said the Green Grace. The gods sent this man to us. He comes as a harbinger.
He comes as a sign.
A sign of what? asked Dany. A sign of wroth and ruin.
She did not want to believe that. He was one man. One sick man with an arrow in his leg. A
horse brought him here, not a god. A pale mare. Dany rose abruptly. I thank you for your counsel and
for all that you did for this poor man.
The Green Grace kissed Danys fingers before she took her leave. We shall pray for Astapor.
And for me. Oh, pray for me, my lady. If Astapor had fallen, nothing remained to prevent Yunkai
from turning north.
She turned to Ser Barristan. Send riders into the hills to find my bloodriders. Recall Brown Ben
and the Second Sons as well.
And the Stormcrows, Your Grace?
Daario. Yes. Yes. Just three nights ago she had dreamed of Daario lying dead beside the road,
staring sightlessly into the sky as crows quarreled above his corpse. Other nights she tossed in her bed,
imagining that hed betrayed her, as he had once betrayed his fellow captains in the Stormcrows. He
brought me their heads. What if he had taken his company back to Yunkai, to sell her for a pot of gold?
He would not do that. Would he? The Stormcrows too. Send riders after them at once.
The Second Sons were the first to return, eight days after the queen sent forth her summons.
When Ser Barristan told her that her captain desired words with her, she thought for a moment that it
was Daario, and her heart leapt. But the captain that he spoke of was Brown Ben Plumm.
Brown Ben had a seamed and weathered face, skin the color of old teak, white hair, and
wrinkles at the corners of his eyes. Dany was so pleased to see his leathery brown face that she hugged
him. His eyes crinkled in amusement. I heard talk Your Grace was going to take a husband, he said,
but no one told me it was me. They laughed together as Reznak sputtered, but the laughter ceased
when Brown Ben said, We caught three Astapori. Your Worship had best hear what they say.
Bring them.
Daenerys received them in the grandeur of her hall as tall candles burned amongst the marble
pillars. When she saw that the Astapori were half-starved, she sent for food at once. These three were
all that remained of a dozen who had set out together from the Red City: a bricklayer, a weaver, and a
cobbler. What befell the rest of your party? the queen asked.

Slain, said the cobbler. Yunkais sellswords roam the hills north of Astapor, hunting down
those who flee the flames.
Has the city fallen, then? Its walls were thick.
This is so, said the bricklayer, a stoop-backed man with rheumy eyes, but they were old and
crumbling as well.
The weaver raised her head. Every day we told each other that the dragon queen was coming
back. The woman had thin lips and dull dead eyes, set in a pinched and narrow face. Cleon had sent
for you, it was said, and you were coming.
He sent for me, thought Dany. That much is true, at least. Outside our walls, the Yunkaii
devoured our crops and slaughtered our herds, the cobbler went on. Inside we starved. We ate cats
and rats and leather. A horsehide was a feast. King Cutthroat and Queen Whore accused each other of
feasting on the flesh of the slain. Men and women gathered in secret to draw lots and gorge upon the
flesh of him who drew the black stone. The pyramid of Nakloz was despoiled and set aflame by those
who claimed that Kraznys mo Nakloz was to blame for all our woes.
Others blamed Daenerys, said the weaver, but more of us still loved you. She is on her way,
we said to one another. She is coming at the head of a great host, with food for all. 
I can scarce feed my own folk. If I had marched to Astapor, I would have lost Meereen.
The cobbler told them how the body of the Butcher King had been disinterred and clad in
copper armor, after the Green Grace of Astapor had a vision that he would deliver them from the
Yunkaii. Armored and stinking, the corpse of Cleon the Great was strapped onto the back of a starving
horse to lead the remnants of his new Unsullied on a sortie, but they rode right into the iron teeth of a
legion from New Ghis and were cut down to a man.
Afterward the Green Grace was impaled upon a stake in the Plaza of Punishment and left until
she died. In the pyramid of Ullhor, the survivors had a great feast that lasted half the night, and washed
the last of their food down with poison wine so none need wake again come morning. Soon after came
the sickness, a bloody flux that killed three men of every four, until a mob of dying men went mad and
slew the guards on the main gate.
The old brickmaker broke in to say, No. That was the work of healthy men, running to escape
the flux.
Does it matter? asked the cobbler. The guards were torn apart and the gates thrown open.
The legions of New Ghis came pouring into Astapor, followed by the Yunkaii and the sellswords on their
horses. Queen Whore died fighting them with a curse upon her lips. King Cutthroat yielded and was
thrown into a fighting pit, to be torn apart by a pack of starving dogs.

Even then some said that you were coming, said the weaver. They swore they had seen you
mounted on a dragon, flying high above the camps of the Yunkaii. Every day we looked for you.
I could not come, the queen thought. I dare not. And when the city fell? demanded Skahaz.
What then?
The butchery began. The Temple of the Graces was full of the sick who had come to ask the
gods to heal them. The legions sealed the doors and set the temple ablaze with torches. Within the hour
fires were burning in every corner of the city. As they spread they joined with one another. The streets
were full of mobs, running this way and that to escape the flames, but there was no way out. The
Yunkaii held the gates.
Yet you escaped, the Shavepate said. How is that?
The old man answered. I am by trade a brickmaker, as my father and his father were before
me. My grandfather built our house up against the city walls. It was an easy thing to work loose a few
bricks every night. When I told my friends, they helped me shore up the tunnel so it would not collapse.
We all agreed that it might be good to have our own way out.
I left you with a council to rule over you, Dany thought, a healer, a scholar, and a priest. She
could still recall the Red City as she had first seen it, dry and dusty behind its red brick walls, dreaming
cruel dreams, yet full of life. There were islands in the Worm where lovers kissed, but in the Plaza of
Punishment they peeled the skin off men in strips and left them hanging naked for the flies. It is good
that you have come, she told the Astapori. You will be safe in Meereen.
The cobbler thanked her for that, and the old brickmaker kissed her foot, but the weaver looked
at her with eyes as hard as slate. She knows I lie, the queen thought. She knows I cannot keep them safe.
Astapor is burning, and Meereen is next.
Theres more coming, Brown Ben announced when the Astapori had been led away. These
three had horses. Most are afoot.
How many are they? asked Reznak.
Brown Ben shrugged. Hundreds. Thousands. Some sick, some burned, some wounded. The Cats
and the Windblown are swarming through the hills with lance and lash, driving them north and cutting
down the laggards.
Mouths on feet. And sick, you say? Reznak wrung his hands. Your Worship must not allow
them in the city.
I wouldnt, said Brown Ben Plumm. Im no maester, mind you, but I know you got to keep the
bad apples from the good.
These are not apples, Ben, said Dany. These are men and women, sick and hungry and
afraid. My children. I should have gone to Astapor.

Your Grace could not have saved them, said Ser Barristan. You warned King Cleon against this
war with Yunkai. The man was a fool, and his hands were red with blood.
And are my hands any cleaner? She remembered what Daario had saidthat all kings must be
butchers, or meat. Cleon was the enemy of our enemy. If I had joined him at the Horns of Hazzat, we
might have crushed the Yunkaii between us.
The Shavepate disagreed. If you had taken the Unsullied south to Hazzat, the Sons of the
Harpy
I know. I know. It is Eroeh all over again.
Brown Ben Plumm was puzzled. Who is Eroeh?
A girl I thought Id saved from rape and torment. All I did was make it worse for her in the end.
And all I did in Astapor was make ten thousand Eroehs.
Your Grace could not have known
I am the queen. It was my place to know.
What is done is done, said Reznak mo Reznak. Your Worship, I beg you, take the noble
Hizdahr for your king at once. He can speak with the Wise Masters, make a peace for us.
On what terms? Beware the perfumed seneschal, Quaithe had said. The masked woman had
foretold the coming of the pale mare, was she right about the noble Reznak too? I may be a young girl
innocent of war, but I am not a lamb to walk bleating into the harpys den. I still have my Unsullied. I
have the Stormcrows and the Second Sons. I have three companies of freedmen.
Them, and dragons, said Brown Ben Plumm, with a grin. In the pit, in chains, wailed Reznak
mo Reznak. What good are dragons that cannot be controlled? Even the Unsullied grow fearful when
they must open the doors to feed them.
What, o the queens little pets? Brown Bens eyes crinkled in amusement. The grizzled
captain of the Second Sons was a creature of the free companies, a mongrel with the blood of a dozen
different peoples flowing through his veins, but he had always been fond of the dragons, and them of
him.
Pets? screeched Reznak. Monsters, rather. Monsters that feed on children. We cannot
Silence, said Daenerys. We will not speak of that.
Reznak shrank away from her, flinching from the fury in her tone. Forgive me, Magnificence, I
did not 
Brown Ben Plumm bulled over him. Your Grace, the Yunkish got three free companies against
our two, and theres talk the Yunkishmen sent to Volantis to fetch back the Golden Company. Those

bastards field ten thousand. Yunkais got four Ghiscari legions too, maybe more, and I heard it said they
sent riders across the Dothraki sea to maybe bring some big khalasar down on us. We need them
dragons, the way I see it.
Dany sighed. I am sorry, Ben. I dare not loose the dragons. She could see that was not the
answer that he wanted.
Plumm scratched at his speckled whiskers. If theres no dragons in the balance, well  we
should leave before them Yunkish bastards close the trap  only first, make the slavers pay to see our
backs. They pay the khals to leave their cities be, why not us? Sell Meereen back to them and start west
with wagons full o gold and gems and such.
You want me to loot Meereen and flee? No, I will not do that. Grey Worm, are my freedmen
ready for battle?
The eunuch crossed his arms against his chest. They are not Unsul-lied, but they will not shame
you. This one will swear to that by spear and sword, Your Worship.
Good. Thats good. Daenerys looked at the faces of the men around her. The Shavepate,
scowling. Ser Barristan, with his lined face and sad blue eyes. Reznak mo Reznak, pale, sweating. Brown
Ben, white-haired, grizzled, tough as old leather. Grey Worm, smooth-cheeked, stolid, expressionless.
Daario should be here, and my bloodriders, she thought. If there is to be a battle, the blood of my blood
should be with me. She missed Ser Jorah Mormont too. He lied to me, informed on me, but he loved me
too, and he always gave good counsel. I defeated the Yunkaii before. I will defeat them again. Where,
though? How?
You mean to take the field? The Shavepates voice was thick with disbelief. That would be
folly. Our walls are taller and thicker than the walls of Astapor, and our defenders are more valiant. The
Yunkaii will not take this city easily.
Ser Barristan disagreed. I do not think we should allow them to invest us. Theirs is a patchwork
host at best. These slavers are no soldiers. If we take them unawares 
Small chance of that, the Shavepate said. The Yunkaii have many friends inside the city. They
will know.
How large an army can we muster? Dany asked. Not large enough, begging your royal
pardon, said Brown Ben Plumm. What does Naharis have to say? If were going to make a fight o this,
we need his Stormcrows.
Daario is still in the field. Oh, gods, what have I done? Have I sent him to his death? Ben, I will
need your Second Sons to scout our enemies. Where they are, how fast they are advancing, how many
men they have, and how they are disposed.
Well need provisions. Fresh horses too.

Of course. Ser Barristan will see to it.
Brown Ben scratched his chin. Might be we could get some o them to come over. If Your Grace
could spare a few bags o gold and gems  just to give their captains a good taste, as it were  well, who
knows?
Buy them, why not? Dany said. That sort of thing went on all the time amongst the free
companies of the Disputed Lands, she knew. Yes, very good. Reznak, see to it. Once the Second Sons
ride out, close the gates and double the watch upon the walls.
It shall be done, Magnificence, said Reznak mo Reznak. What of these Astapori?
My children. They are coming here for help. For succor and protection. We cannot turn our
backs on them.
Ser Barristan frowned. Your Grace, I have known the bloody flux to destroy whole armies when
left to spread unchecked. The seneschal is right. We cannot have the Astapori in Meereen.
Dany looked at him helplessly. It was good that dragons did not cry. As you say, then. We will
keep them outside the walls until this  this curse has run its course. Set up a camp for them beside the
river, west of the city. We will send them what food we can. Perhaps we can separate the healthy from
the sick. All of them were looking at her. Will you make me say it twice? Go and do as Ive commanded
you. Dany rose, brushed past Brown Ben, and climbed the steps to the sweet solitude of her terrace.
Two hundred leagues divided Meereen from Astapor, yet it seemed to her that the sky was
darker to the southwest, smudged and hazy with the smoke of the Red Citys passing. Brick and blood
built Astapor, and brick and blood its people. The old rhyme rang in her head. Ash and bone is Astapor,
and ash and bone its people. She tried to recall Eroehs face, but the dead girls features kept turning
into smoke.
When Daenerys finally turned away, Ser Barristan stood near her, wrapped in his white cloak
against the chill of evening. Can we make a fight of this? she asked him.
Men can always fight, Your Grace. Ask rather if we can win. Dying is easy, but victory comes
hard. Your freedmen are half-trained and un-blooded. Your sellswords once served your foes, and once
a man turns his cloak he will not scruple to turn it again. You have two dragons who cannot be
controlled, and a third that may be lost to you. Beyond these walls your only friends are the Lhazarene,
who have no taste for war.
My walls are strong, though.
No stronger than when we sat outside them. And the Sons of the Harpy are inside the walls
with us. So are the Great Masters, both those you did not kill and the sons of those you did.
I know. The queen sighed. What do you counsel, ser?

Battle, said Ser Barristan. Meereen is overcrowded and full of hungry mouths, and you have
too many enemies within. We cannot long withstand a siege, I fear. Let me meet the foe as he comes
north, on ground of my own choosing.
Meet the foe, she echoed, with the freedmen youve called half-trained and unblooded.
We were all unblooded once, Your Grace. The Unsullied will help stiffen them. If I had five
hundred knights 
Or five. And if I give you the Unsullied, I will have no one but the Brazen Beasts to hold
Meereen. When Ser Barristan did not dispute her, Dany closed her eyes. Gods, she prayed, you took
Khal Drogo, who was my sun-and-stars. You took our valiant son before he drew a breath. You have had
your blood of me. Help me now, I pray you. Give me the wisdom to see the path ahead and the strength
to do what I must to keep my children safe.
The gods did not respond.
When she opened her eyes again, Daenerys said, I cannot fight two enemies, one within and
one without. If I am to hold Meereen, I must have the city behind me. The whole city. I need  I need 
She could not say it.
Your Grace? Ser Barristan prompted, gently. A queen belongs not to herself but to her people.
I need Hizdahr zo Loraq.
MELISANDRE
It was never truly dark in Melisandres chambers.
Three tallow candles burned upon her windowsill to keep the terrors of the night at bay. Four
more flickered beside her bed, two to either side. In the hearth a fire was kept burning day and night.
The first lesson those who would serve her had to learn was that the fire must never, ever be allowed to
go out.
The red priestess closed her eyes and said a prayer, then opened them once more to face the
hearthfire. One more time. She had to be certain. Many a priest and priestess before her had been
brought down by false visions, by seeing what they wished to see instead of what the Lord of Light had
sent. Stannis was marching south into peril, the king who carried the fate of the world upon his
shoulders, Azor Ahai reborn. Surely Rhllor would vouchsafe her a glimpse of what awaited him. Show
me Stannis, Lord, she prayed. Show me your king, your instrument.
Visions danced before her, gold and scarlet, flickering, forming and melting and dissolving into
one another, shapes strange and terrifying and seductive. She saw the eyeless faces again, staring out at
her from sockets weeping blood. Then the towers by the sea, crumbling as the dark tide came sweeping

over them, rising from the depths. Shadows in the shape of skulls, skulls that turned to mist, bodies
locked together in lust, writhing and rolling and clawing. Through curtains of fire great winged shadows
wheeled against a hard blue sky.
The girl. I must find the girl again, the grey girl on the dying horse. Jon Snow would expect that
of her, and soon. It would not be enough to say the girl was fleeing. He would want more, he would
want the when and where, and she did not have that for him. She had seen the girl only once. A girl as
grey as ash, and even as I watched she crumbled and blew away.
A face took shape within the hearth. Stannis? she thought, for just a moment  but no, these
were not his features. A wooden face, corpse white. Was this the enemy? A thousand red eyes floated in
the rising flames. He sees me. Beside him, a boy with a wolfs face threw back his head and howled.
The red priestess shuddered. Blood trickled down her thigh, black and smoking. The fire was
inside her, an agony, an ecstasy, filling her, searing her, transforming her. Shimmers of heat traced
patterns on her skin, insistent as a lovers hand. Strange voices called to her from days long past.
Melony, she heard a woman cry. A mans voice called, Lot Seven. She was weeping, and her tears
were flame. And still she drank it in.
Snowflakes swirled from a dark sky and ashes rose to meet them, the grey and the white
whirling around each other as flaming arrows arced above a wooden wall and dead things shambled
silent through the cold, beneath a great grey cliff where fires burned inside a hundred caves. Then the
wind rose and the white mist came sweeping in, impossibly cold, and one by one the fires went out.
Afterward only the skulls remained.
Death, thought Melisandre. The skulls are death.
The flames crackled softly, and in their crackling she heard the whispered name Jon Snow. His
long face floated before her, limned in tongues of red and orange, appearing and disappearing again, a
shadow half-seen behind a fluttering curtain. Now he was a man, now a wolf, now a man again. But the
skulls were here as well, the skulls were all around him. Melisandre had seen his danger before, had
tried to warn the boy of it. Enemies all around him, daggers in the dark. He would not listen.
Unbelievers never listened until it was too late.
What do you see, my lady? the boy asked, softly.
Skulls. A thousand skulls, and the bastard boy again. Jon Snow. Whenever she was asked what
she saw within her fires, Melisandre would answer, Much and more, but seeing was never as simple as
those words suggested. It was an art, and like all arts it demanded mastery, discipline, study. Pain. That
too. Rhllor spoke to his chosen ones through blessed fire, in a language of ash and cinder and twisting
flame that only a god could truly grasp. Melisandre had practiced her art for years beyond count, and
she had paid the price. There was no one, even in her order, who had her skill at seeing the secrets
half-revealed and half-concealed within the sacred flames.

Yet now she could not even seem to find her king. I pray for a glimpse of Azor Ahai, and Rhllor
shows me only Snow. Devan, she called, a drink. Her throat was raw and parched.
Yes, my lady. The boy poured her a cup of water from the stone jug by the window and
brought it to her.
Thank you. Melisandre took a sip, swallowed, and gave the boy a smile. That made him blush.
The boy was half in love with her, she knew. He fears me, he wants me, and he worships me.
All the same, Devan was not pleased to be here. The lad had taken great pride in serving as a
kings squire, and it had wounded him when Stannis commanded him to remain at Castle Black. Like any
boy his age, his head was full of dreams of glory; no doubt he had been picturing the prowess he would
display at Deepwood Motte. Other boys his age had gone south, to serve as squires to the kings knights
and ride into battle at their side. Devans exclusion must have seemed a rebuke, a punishment for some
failure on his part, or perhaps for some failure of his father.
In truth, he was here because Melisandre had asked for him. The four eldest sons of Davos
Seaworth had perished in the battle on the Blackwater, when the kings fleet had been consumed by
green fire. Devan was the fifthborn and safer here with her than at the kings side. Lord Davos would not
thank her for it, no more than the boy himself, but it seemed to her that Seaworth had suffered enough
grief. Misguided as he was, his loyalty to Stannis could not be doubted. She had seen that in her flames.
Devan was quick and smart and able too, which was more than could be said about most of her
attendants. Stannis had left a dozen of his men behind to serve her when he marched south, but most of
them were useless. His Grace had need of every sword, so all he could spare were grey-beards and
cripples. One man had been blinded by a blow to his head in the battle by the Wall, another lamed when
his falling horse crushed his legs. Her serjeant had lost an arm to a giants club. Three of her guard were
geldings that Stannis had castrated for raping wildling women. She had two drunkards and a craven too.
The last should have been hanged, as the king himself admitted, but he came from a noble family, and
his father and brothers had been stalwart from the first.
Having guards about her would no doubt help keep the black brothers properly respectful, the
red priestess knew, but none of the men that Stannis had given her were like to be much help should
she find herself in peril. It made no matter. Melisandre of Asshai did not fear for herself. Rhllor would
protect her.
She took another sip of water, laid her cup aside, blinked and stretched and rose from her chair,
her muscles sore and stiff. After gazing into the flames so long, it took her a few moments to adjust to
the dimness. Her eyes were dry and tired, but if she rubbed them, it would only make them worse.
Her fire had burned low, she saw. Devan, more wood. What hour is it?
Almost dawn, my lady.

Dawn. Another day is given us, Rhllor be praised. The terrors of the night recede. Melisandre
had spent the night in her chair by the fire, as she often did. With Stannis gone, her bed saw little use.
She had no time for sleep, with the weight of the world upon her shoulders. And she feared to dream.
Sleep is a little death, dreams the whisperings of the Other, who would drag us all into his eternal night.
She would sooner sit bathed in the ruddy glow of her red lords blessed flames, her cheeks flushed by
the wash of heat as if by a lovers kisses. Some nights she drowsed, but never for more than an hour.
One day, Melisandre prayed, she would not sleep at all. One day she would be free of dreams. Melony,
she thought. Lot Seven.
Devan fed fresh logs to the fire until the flames leapt up again, fierce and furious, driving the
shadows back into the corners of the room, devouring all her unwanted dreams. The dark recedes again
 for a little while. But beyond the Wall, the enemy grows stronger, and should he win the dawn will
never come again. She wondered if it had been his face that she had seen, staring out at her from the
flames. No. Surely not. His visage would be more frightening than that, cold and black and too terrible
for any man to gaze upon and live. The wooden man she had glimpsed, though, and the boy with the
wolfs face  they were his servants, surely  his champions, as Stannis was hers.
Melisandre went to her window, pushed open the shutters. Outside the east had just begun to
lighten, and the stars of morning still hung in a pitch-black sky. Castle Black was already beginning to stir
as men in black cloaks made their way across the yard to break their fast with bowls of porridge before
they relieved their brothers atop the Wall. A few snowflakes drifted by the open window, floating on the
wind.
Does my lady wish to break her fast? asked Devan.
Food. Yes, I should eat. Some days she forgot. Rhllor provided her with all the nourishment her
body needed, but that was something best concealed from mortal men.
It was Jon Snow she needed, not fried bread and bacon, but it was no use sending Devan to the
lord commander. He would not come to her summons. Snow still chose to dwell behind the armory, in a
pair of modest rooms previously occupied by the Watchs late blacksmith. Perhaps he did not think
himself worthy of the Kings Tower, or perhaps he did not care. That was his mistake, the false humility
of youth that is itself a sort of pride. It was never wise for a ruler to eschew the trappings of power, for
power itself flows in no small measure from such trappings.
The boy was not entirely naive, however. He knew better than to come to Melisandres
chambers like a supplicant, insisting she come to him instead should she have need of words with him.
And oft as not, when she did come, he would keep her waiting or refuse to see her. That much, at least,
was shrewd.
I will have nettle tea, a boiled egg, and bread with butter. Fresh bread, if you please, not fried.
You may find the wildling as well. Tell him that I must speak with him.
Rattleshirt, my lady?

And quickly.
While the boy was gone, Melisandre washed herself and changed her robes. Her sleeves were
full of hidden pockets, and she checked them carefully as she did every morning to make certain all her
powders were in place. Powders to turn fire green or blue or silver, powders to make a flame roar and
hiss and leap up higher than a man is tall, powders to make smoke. A smoke for truth, a smoke for lust, a
smoke for fear, and the thick black smoke that could kill a man outright. The red priestess armed herself
with a pinch of each of them.
The carved chest that she had brought across the narrow sea was more than three-quarters
empty now. And while Melisandre had the knowledge to make more powders, she lacked many rare
ingredients. My spells should suffice. She was stronger at the Wall, stronger even than in Asshai. Her
every word and gesture was more potent, and she could do things that she had never done before. Such
shadows as I bring forth here will be terrible, and no creature of the dark will stand before them. With
such sorceries at her command, she should soon have no more need of the feeble tricks of alchemists
and pyromancers.
She shut the chest, turned the lock, and hid the key inside her skirts in another secret pocket.
Then came a rapping at her door. Her one-armed serjeant, from the tremulous sound of his knock. Lady
Melisandre, the Lord o Bones is come.
Send him in. Melisandre settled herself back into the chair beside the hearth.
The wildling wore a sleeveless jerkin of boiled leather dotted with bronze studs beneath a worn
cloak mottled in shades of green and brown. No bones. He was cloaked in shadows too, in wisps of
ragged grey mist, half-seen, sliding across his face and form with every step he took. Ugly things. As ugly
as his bones. A widows peak, close-set dark eyes, pinched cheeks, a mustache wriggling like a worm
above a mouthful of broken brown teeth.
Melisandre felt the warmth in the hollow of her throat as her ruby stirred at the closeness of its
slave. You have put aside your suit of bones, she observed.
The clacking was like to drive me mad.
The bones protect you, she reminded him. The black brothers do not love you. Devan tells
me that only yesterday you had words with some of them over supper.
A few. I was eating bean-and-bacon soup whilst Bowen Marsh was going on about the high
ground. The Old Pomegranate thought that I was spying on him and announced that he would not suffer
murderers listening to their councils. I told him that if that was true, maybe they shouldnt have them by
the fire. Bowen turned red and made some choking sounds, but that was as far as it went. The wildling
sat on the edge of the window, slid his dagger from its sheath. If some crow wants to slip a knife
between my ribs whilst Im spooning up some supper, hes welcome to try. Hobbs gruel would taste
better with a drop of blood to spice it.

Melisandre paid the naked steel no mind. If the wildling had meant her harm, she would have
seen it in her flames. Danger to her own person was the first thing she had learned to see, back when
she was still half a child, a slave girl bound for life to the great red temple. It was still the first thing she
looked for whenever she gazed into a fire. It is their eyes that should concern you, not their knives,
she warned him.
The glamor, aye. In the black iron fetter about his wrist, the ruby seemed to pulse. He tapped
it with the edge of his blade. The steel made a faint click against the stone. I feel it when I sleep. Warm
against my skin, even through the iron. Soft as a womans kiss. Your kiss. But sometimes in my dreams it
starts to burn, and your lips turn into teeth. Every day I think how easy it would be to pry it out, and
every day I dont. Must I wear the bloody bones as well?
The spell is made of shadow and suggestion. Men see what they expect to see. The bones are
part of that. Was I wrong to spare this one? If the glamor fails, they will kill you.
The wildling began to scrape the dirt out from beneath his nails with the point of his dagger.
Ive sung my songs, fought my battles, drunk summer wine, tasted the Dornishmans wife. A man
should die the way hes lived. For me thats steel in hand.
Does he dream of death? Could the enemy have touched him? Death is his domain, the dead his
soldiers. You shall have work for your steel soon enough. The enemy is moving, the true enemy. And
Lord Snows rangers will return before the day is done, with their blind and bloody eyes.
The wildlings own eyes narrowed. Grey eyes, brown eyes; Melisandre could see the color
change with each pulse of the ruby. Cutting out the eyes, thats the Weepers work. The best crows a
blind crow, he likes to say. Sometimes I think hed like to cut out his own eyes, the way theyre always
watering and itching. Snows been assuming the free folk would turn to Tormund to lead them, because
thats what he would do. He liked Tormund, and the old fraud liked him too. If its the Weeper, though 
thats not good. Not for him, and not for us.
Melisandre nodded solemnly, as if she had taken his words to heart, but this Weeper did not
matter. None of his free folk mattered. They were a lost people, a doomed people, destined to vanish
from the earth, as the children of the forest had vanished. Those were not words he would wish to hear,
though, and she could not risk losing him, not now. How well do you know the north?
He slipped his blade away. As well as any raider. Some parts more than others. Theres a lot of
north. Why?
The girl, she said. A girl in grey on a dying horse. Jon Snows sister. Who else could it be? She
was racing to him for protection, that much Melisandre had seen clearly. I have seen her in my flames,
but only once. We must win the lord commanders trust, and the only way to do that is to save her.
Me save her, you mean? The Lord o Bones? He laughed. No one ever trusted Rattleshirt but
fools. Snows not that. If his sister needs saving, hell send his crows. I would.

He is not you. He made his vows and means to live by them. The Nights Watch takes no part.
But you are not Nights Watch. You can do what he cannot.
If your stiff-necked lord commander will allow it. Did your fires show you where to find this
girl?
I saw water. Deep and blue and still, with a thin coat of ice just forming on it. It seemed to go
on and on forever.
Long Lake. What else did you see around this girl?
Hills. Fields. Trees. A deer, once. Stones. She is staying well away from villages. When she can
she rides along the bed of little streams, to throw hunters off her trail.
He frowned. That will make it difficult. She was coming north, you said. Was the lake to her
east or to her west?
Melisandre closed her eyes, remembering. West.
She is not coming up the kingsroad, then. Clever girl. There are fewer watchers on the other
side, and more cover. And some hidey-holes I have used myself from time He broke off at the sound
of a warhorn and rose swiftly to his feet. All over Castle Black, Melisandre knew, the same sudden hush
had fallen, and every man and boy turned toward the Wall, listening, waiting. One long blast of the horn
meant rangers returning, but two 
The day has come, the red priestess thought. Lord Snow will have to listen to me now.
After the long mournful cry of the horn had faded away, the silence seemed to stretch out to an
hour. The wildling finally broke the spell. Only one, then. Rangers.
Dead rangers. Melisandre rose to her feet as well. Go put on your bones and wait. I will
return.
I should go with you.
Do not be foolish. Once they find what they will find, the sight of any wildling will inflame them.
Stay here until their blood has time to cool.
Devan was coming up the steps of the Kings Tower as Melisandre made her descent, flanked by
two of the guards Stannis had left her. The boy was carrying her half-forgotten breakfast on a tray. I
waited for Hobb to pull the fresh loaves from the ovens, my lady. The breads still hot.
Leave it in my chambers. The wildling would eat it, like as not. Lord Snow has need of me,
beyond the Wall. He does not know it yet, but soon 
Outside, a light snow had begun to fall. A crowd of crows had gathered around the gate by the
time Melisandre and her escort arrived, but they made way for the red priestess. The lord commander

had preceded her through the ice, accompanied by Bowen Marsh and twenty spearmen. Snow had also
sent a dozen archers to the top of the Wall, should any foes be hidden in the nearby woods. The guards
on the gate were not queens men, but they passed her all the same.
It was cold and dark beneath the ice, in the narrow tunnel that crooked and slithered through
the Wall. Morgan went before her with a torch and Merrel came behind her with an axe. Both men were
hopeless drunkards, but they were sober at this hour of the morning. Queens men, at least in name,
both had a healthy fear of her, and Merrel could be formidable when he was not drunk. She would have
no need of them today, but Melisandre made it a point to keep a pair of guards about her everywhere
she went. It sent a certain message. The trappings of power.
By the time the three of them emerged north of the Wall the snow was falling steadily. A ragged
blanket of white covered the torn and tortured earth that stretched from the Wall to the edge of the
haunted forest. Jon Snow and his black brothers were gathered around three spears, some twenty yards
away.
The spears were eight feet long and made of ash. The one on the left had a slight crook, but the
other two were smooth and straight. At the top of each was impaled a severed head. Their beards were
full of ice, and the falling snow had given them white hoods. Where their eyes had been, only empty
sockets remained, black and bloody holes that stared down in silent accusation.
Who were they? Melisandre asked the crows. Black Jack Bulwer, Hairy Hal, and Garth
Greyfeather, Bowen Marsh said solemnly. The ground is half-frozen. It must have taken the wild-lings
half the night to drive the spears so deep. They could still be close. Watching us. The Lord Steward
squinted at the line of trees.
Could be a hundred of them out there, said the black brother with the dour face. Could be a
thousand.
No, said Jon Snow. They left their gifts in the black of night, then ran. His huge white
direwolf prowled around the shafts, sniffing, then lifted his leg and pissed on the spear that held the
head of Black Jack Bulwer. Ghost would have their scent if they were still out there.
I hope the Weeper burned the bodies, said the dour man, the one called Dolorous Edd.
Elsewise they might come looking for their heads.
Jon Snow grasped the spear that bore Garth Greyfeathers head and wrenched it violently from
the ground. Pull down the other two, he commanded, and four of the crows hurried to obey.
Bowen Marshs cheeks were red with cold. We should never have sent out rangers.
This is not the time and place to pick at that wound. Not here, my lord. Not now. To the men
struggling with the spears Snow said, Take the heads and burn them. Leave nothing but bare bone.
Only then did he seem to notice Melisandre. My lady. Walk with me, if you would.

At last. If it please the lord commander.
As they walked beneath the Wall, she slipped her arm through his. Morgan and Merrel went
before them, Ghost came prowling at their heels. The priestess did not speak, but she slowed her pace
deliberately, and where she walked the ice began to drip. He will not fail to notice that.
Beneath the iron grating of a murder hole Snow broke the silence, as she had known he would.
What of the other six?
I have not seen them, Melisandre said.
Will you look?
Of course, my lord.
Weve had a raven from Ser Denys Mallister at the Shadow Tower, Jon Snow told her. His
men have seen fires in the mountains on the far side of the Gorge. Wildlings massing, Ser Denys
believes. He thinks they are going to try to force the Bridge of Skulls again.
Some may. Could the skulls in her vision have signified this bridge? Somehow Melisandre did
not think so. If it comes, that attack will be no more than a diversion. I saw towers by the sea,
submerged beneath a black and bloody tide. That is where the heaviest blow will fall.
Eastwatch?
Was it? Melisandre had seen Eastwatch-by-the-Sea with King Stannis. That was where His Grace
left Queen Selyse and their daughter Shireen when he assembled his knights for the march to Castle
Black. The towers in her fire had been different, but that was oft the way with visions. Yes. Eastwatch,
my lord.
When?
She spread her hands. On the morrow. In a moons turn. In a year. And it may be that if you act,
you may avert what I have seen entirely. Else what would be the point of visions?
Good, said Snow.
The crowd of crows beyond the gate had swollen to two score by the time they emerged from
beneath the Wall. The men pressed close about them. Melisandre knew a few by name: the cook
Three-Finger Hobb, Mully with his greasy orange hair, the dim-witted boy called Owen the Oaf, the
drunkard Septon Celladar.
Is it true, mlord? said Three-Finger Hobb. Who is it? asked Owen the Oaf. Not Dywen, is
it?
Nor Garth, said the queens man she knew as Alf of Runnymudd, one of the first to exchange
his seven false gods for the truth of Rhllor. Garths too clever for them wildlings.

How many? Mully asked.
Three, Jon told them. Black Jack, Hairy Hal, and Garth.
Alf of Runnymudd let out a howl loud enough to wake sleepers in the Shadow Tower. Put him
to bed and get some mulled wine into him, Jon told Three-Finger Hobb.
Lord Snow, Melisandre said quietly. Will you come with me to the Kings Tower? I have more
to share with you.
He looked at her face for a long moment with those cold grey eyes of his. His right hand closed,
opened, closed again. As you wish. Edd, take Ghost back to my chambers.
Melisandre took that as a sign and dismissed her own guard as well. They crossed the yard
together, just the two of them. The snow fell all around them. She walked as close to Jon Snow as she
dared, close enough to feel the mistrust pouring off him like a black fog. He does not love me, will never
love me, but he will make use of me. Well and good. Melisandre had danced the same dance with
Stannis Baratheon, back in the beginning. In truth, the young lord commander and her king had more in
common than either one would ever be willing to admit. Stannis had been a younger son living in the
shadow of his elder brother, just as Jon Snow, bastard-born, had always been eclipsed by his trueborn
sibling, the fallen hero men had called the Young Wolf. Both men were unbelievers by nature,
mistrustful, suspicious. The only gods they truly worshiped were honor and duty.
You have not asked about your sister, Melisandre said, as they climbed the spiral steps of the
Kings Tower.
I told you. I have no sister. We put aside our kin when we say our words. I cannot help Arya,
much as I
He broke off as they stepped inside her chambers. The wildling was within, seated at her board,
spreading butter on a ragged chunk of warm brown bread with his dagger. He had donned the bone
armor, she was pleased to see. The broken giants skull that was his helm rested on the window seat
behind him.
Jon Snow tensed. You.
Lord Snow. The wildling grinned at them through a mouth of brown and broken teeth. The
ruby on his wrist glimmered in the morning light like a dim red star.
What are you doing here?
Breaking my fast. Youre welcome to share.
Ill not break bread with you.
Your loss. The loafs still warm. Hobb can do that much, at least. The wildling ripped off a bite.
I could visit you as easily, my lord. Those guards at your door are a bad jape. A man who has climbed

the Wall half a hundred times can climb in a window easy enough. But what good would come of killing
you? The crows would only choose someone worse. He chewed, swallowed. I heard about your
rangers. You should have sent me with them.
So you could betray them to the Weeper?
Are we talking about betrayals? What was the name of that wildling wife of yours, Snow?
Ygritte, wasnt it? The wildling turned to Melisandre. I will need horses. Half a dozen good ones. And
this is nothing I can do alone. Some of the spearwives penned up at Moles Town should serve. Women
would be best for this. The girls more like to trust them, and they will help me carry off a certain ploy I
have in mind.
What is he talking about? Lord Snow asked her. Your sister. Melisandre put her hand on his
arm. You cannot help her, but he can.
Snow wrenched his arm away. I think not. You do not know this creature. Rattleshirt could
wash his hands a hundred times a day and hed still have blood beneath his nails. Hed be more like to
rape and murder Arya than to save her. No. If this was what you have seen in your fires, my lady, you
must have ashes in your eyes. If he tries to leave Castle Black without my leave, Ill take his head off
myself.
He leaves me no choice. So be it. Devan, leave us, she said, and the squire slipped away and
closed the door behind him.
Melisandre touched the ruby at her neck and spoke a word.
The sound echoed queerly from the corners of the room and twisted like a worm inside their
ears. The wildling heard one word, the crow another. Neither was the word that left her lips. The ruby
on the wildlings wrist darkened, and the wisps of light and shadow around him writhed and faded.
The bones remainedthe rattling ribs, the claws and teeth along his arms and shoulders, the
great yellowed collarbone across his shoulders. The broken giants skull remained a broken giants skull,
yellowed and cracked, grinning its stained and savage grin.
But the widows peak dissolved. The brown mustache, the knobby chin, the sallow yellowed
flesh and small dark eyes, all melted. Grey fingers crept through long brown hair. Laugh lines appeared
at the corners of his mouth. All at once he was bigger than before, broader in the chest and shoulders,
long-legged and lean, his face clean-shaved and wind-burnt.
Jon Snows grey eyes grew wider. Mance?
Lord Snow. Mance Rayder did not smile. She burned you.
She burned the Lord of Bones.
Jon Snow turned to Melisandre. What sorcery is this?

Call it what you will. Glamor, seeming, illusion. Rhllor is Lord of Light, Jon Snow, and it is given
to his servants to weave with it, as others weave with thread.
Mance Rayder chuckled. I had my doubts as well, Snow, but why not let her try? It was that, or
let Stannis roast me.
The bones help, said Melisandre. The bones remember. The strongest glamors are built of
such things. A dead mans boots, a hank of hair, a bag of fingerbones. With whispered words and prayer,
a mans shadow can be drawn forth from such and draped about another like a cloak. The wearers
essence does not change, only his seeming.
She made it sound a simple thing, and easy. They need never know how difficult it had been, or
how much it had cost her. That was a lesson Melisandre had learned long before Asshai; the more
effortless the sorcery appears, the more men fear the sorcerer. When the flames had licked at
Rattleshirt, the ruby at her throat had grown so hot that she had feared her own flesh might start to
smoke and blacken. Thankfully Lord Snow had delivered her from that agony with his arrows. Whilst
Stannis had seethed at the defiance, she had shuddered with relief.
Our false king has a prickly manner, Melisandre told Jon Snow, but he will not betray you. We
hold his son, remember. And he owes you his very life.
Me? Snow sounded startled. Who else, my lord? Only his lifes blood could pay for his crimes,
your laws said, and Stannis Baratheon is not a man to go against the law  but as you said so sagely, the
laws of men end at the Wall. I told you that the Lord of Light would hear your prayers. You wanted a
way to save your little sister and still hold fast to the honor that means so much to you, to the vows you
swore before your wooden god. She pointed with a pale finger. There he stands, Lord Snow. Aryas
deliverance. A gift from the Lord of Light  and me.
REEK
He heard the girls first, barking as they raced for home. The drum of hoofbeats echoing off
flagstone jerked him to his feet, chains rattling. The one between his ankles was no more than a foot
long, shortening his stride to a shuffle. It was hard to move quickly that way, but he tried as best he
could, hopping and clanking from his pallet. Ramsay Bolton had returned and would want his Reek on
hand to serve him.
Outside, beneath a cold autumnal sky, the hunters were pouring through the gates. Ben Bones
led the way, with the girls baying and barking all around him. Behind came Skinner, Sour Alyn, and
Damon Dance-for-Me with his long greased whip, then the Walders riding the grey colts Lady Dustin had
given them. His lordship himself rode Blood, a red stallion with a temper to match his own. He was
laughing. That could be very good or very bad, Reek knew.

The dogs were on him before he could puzzle out which, drawn to his scent. The dogs were fond
of Reek; he slept with them oft as not, and sometimes Ben Bones let him share their supper. The pack
raced across the flagstones barking, circling him, jumping up to lick his filthy face, nipping at his legs.
Helicent caught his left hand between her teeth and worried it so fiercely Reek feared he might lose two
more fingers. Red Jeyne slammed into his chest and knocked him off his feet. She was lean, hard muscle,
where Reek was loose, grey skin and brittle bones, a white-haired starveling.
The riders were dismounting by the time he pushed Red Jeyne off and struggled to his knees.
Two dozen horsemen had gone out and two dozen had returned, which meant the search had been a
failure. That was bad. Ramsay did not like the taste of failure. He will want to hurt someone.
Of late, his lord had been forced to restrain himself, for Barrowton was full of men House Bolton
needed, and Ramsay knew to be careful around the Dustins and Ryswells and his fellow lordlings. With
them he was always courteous and smiling. What he was behind closed doors was something else.
Ramsay Bolton was attired as befit the lord of the Hornwood and heir to the Dreadfort. His
mantle was stitched together from wolfskins and clasped against the autumn chill by the yellowed teeth
of the wolfs head on his right shoulder. On one hip he wore a falchion, its blade as thick and heavy as a
cleaver; on the other a long dagger and a small curved flaying knife with a hooked point and a
razor-sharp edge. All three blades had matched hilts of yellow bone. Reek, his lordship called down
from Bloods high saddle, you stink. I can smell you clear across the yard.
I know, my lord, Reek had to say. I beg your pardon.
I brought you a gift. Ramsay twisted, reached behind him, pulled something from his saddle,
and flung it. Catch!
Between the chain, the fetters, and his missing fingers, Reek was clumsier than he had been
before he learned his name. The head struck his maimed hands, bounced away from the stumps of his
fingers, and landed at his feet, raining maggots. It was so crusted with dried blood as to be
unrecognizable.
I told you to catch it, said Ramsay. Pick it up.
Reek tried to lift the head up by the ear. It was no good. The flesh was green and rotting, and
the ear tore off between his fingers. Little Walder laughed, and a moment later all the other men were
laughing too. Oh, leave him be, said Ramsay. Just see to Blood. I rode the bastard hard.
Yes, my lord. I will. Reek hurried to the horse, leaving the severed head for the dogs.
You smell like pigshit today, Reek, said Ramsay.
On him, thats an improvement, said Damon Dance-for-Me, smiling as he coiled his whip.
Little Walder swung down from the saddle. You can see to my horse too, Reek. And to my little
cousins.

I can see to my own horse, said Big Walder. Little Walder had become Lord Ramsays best boy
and grew more like him every day, but the smaller Frey was made of different stuff and seldom took
part in his cousins games and cruelties.
Reek paid the squires no mind. He led Blood off toward the stables, hopping aside when the
stallion tried to kick him. The hunters strode into the hall, all but Ben Bones, who was cursing at the
dogs to stop them fighting over the severed head.
Big Walder followed him into the stables, leading his own mount. Reek stole a look at him as he
removed Bloods bit. Who was he? he said softly, so the other stablehands would not hear.
No one. Big Walder pulled the saddle off his grey. An old man we met on the road, is all. He
was driving an old nanny goat and four kids.
His lordship slew him for his goats?
His lordship slew him for calling him Lord Snow. The goats were good, though. We milked the
mother and roasted up the kids.
Lord Snow. Reek nodded, his chains clinking as he wrestled with Bloods saddle straps. By any
name, Ramsays no man to be around when he is in a rage. Or when hes not. Did you find your cousins,
my lord?
No. I never thought we would. Theyre dead. Lord Wyman had them killed. Thats what I would
have done if I was him.
Reek said nothing. Some things were not safe to say, not even in the stables with his lordship in
the hall. One wrong word could cost him another toe, even a finger. Not my tongue, though. He will
never take my tongue. He likes to hear me plead with him to spare me from the pain. He likes to make
me say it.
The riders had been sixteen days on the hunt, with only hard bread and salt beef to eat, aside
from the occasional stolen kid, so that night Lord Ramsay commanded that a feast be laid to celebrate
his return to Barrow-ton. Their host, a grizzled one-armed petty lord by the name of Harwood Stout,
knew better than to refuse him, though by now his larders must be well nigh exhausted. Reek had heard
Stouts servants muttering at how the Bastard and his men were eating through the winter stores. Hell
bed Lord Eddards little girl, they say, Stouts cook complained when she did not know that Reek was
listening, but were the ones wholl be fucked when the snows come, you mark my words.
Yet Lord Ramsay had decreed a feast, so feast they must. Trestle tables were set up in Stouts
hall, an ox was slaughtered, and that night as the sun went down the empty-handed hunters ate roasts
and ribs, barley bread, a mash of carrots and pease, washing it all down with prodigious quantities of
ale.

It fell to Little Walder to keep Lord Ramsays cup filled, whilst Big Walder poured for the others
at the high table. Reek was chained up beside the doors lest his odor put the feasters off their appetites.
He would eat later, off whatever scraps Lord Ramsay thought to send him. The dogs enjoyed the run of
the hall, however, and provided the nights best entertainment, when Maude and Grey Jeyne tore into
one of Lord Stouts hounds over an especially meaty bone that Will Short had tossed them. Reek was the
only man in the hall who did not watch the three dogs fight. He kept his eyes on Ramsay Bolton.
The fight did not end until their hosts dog was dead. Stouts old hound never stood a mummers
chance. He had been one against two, and Ramsays bitches were young, strong, and savage. Ben Bones,
who liked the dogs better than their master, had told Reek they were all named after peasant girls
Ramsay had hunted, raped, and killed back when hed still been a bastard, running with the first Reek.
The ones who give him good sport, anywise. The ones who weep and beg and wont run dont get to
come back as bitches. The next litter to come out of the Dreadforts kennels would include a Kyra, Reek
did not doubt. Hes trained em to kill wolves as well, Ben Bones had confided. Reek said nothing. He
knew which wolves the girls were meant to kill, but he had no wish to watch the girls fighting over his
severed toe.
Two serving men were carrying off the dead dogs carcass and an old woman had fetched out a
mop and rake and bucket to deal with the blood-soaked rushes when the doors to the hall flew open in
a wash of wind, and a dozen men in grey mail and iron halfhelms stalked through, shouldering past
Stouts pasty-faced young guards in their leather brigandines and cloaks of gold and russet. A sudden
silence seized the feasters  all but Lord Ramsay, who tossed aside the bone he had been gnawing,
wiped his mouth on his sleeve, smiled a greasy, wet-lipped smile, and said, Father.
The Lord of the Dreadfort glanced idly at the remnants of the feast, at the dead dog, at the
hangings on the walls, at Reek in his chains and fetters. Out, he told the feasters, in a voice as soft as a
murmur. Now. The lot of you.
Lord Ramsays men pushed back from the tables, abandoning cups and trenchers. Ben Bones
shouted at the girls, and they trotted after him, some with bones still in their jaws. Harwood Stout
bowed stiffly and relinquished his hall without a word. Unchain Reek and take him with you, Ramsay
growled at Sour Alyn, but his father waved a pale hand and said, No, leave him.
Even Lord Rooses own guards retreated, pulling the doors shut behind them. When the echo
died away, Reek found himself alone in the hall with the two Boltons, father and son.
You did not find our missing Freys. The way Roose Bolton said it, it was more a statement than
a question.
We rode back to where Lord Lamprey claims they parted ways, but the girls could not find a
trail.
You asked after them in villages and holdfasts.

A waste of words. The peasants might as well be blind for all they ever see. Ramsay shrugged.
Does it matter? The world wont miss a few Freys. Theres plenty more down at the Twins should we
ever have need of one.
Lord Roose tore a small piece off a heel of bread and ate it. Hosteen and Aenys are distressed.
Let them go looking, if they like.
Lord Wyman blames himself. To hear him tell it, he had become especially fond of Rhaegar.
Lord Ramsay was turning wroth. Reek could see it in his mouth, the curl of those thick lips, the
way the cords stood up in his neck. The fools should have stayed with Manderly.
Roose Bolton shrugged. Lord Wymans litter moves at a snails pace  and of course his
lordships health and girth do not permit him to travel more than a few hours a day, with frequent stops
for meals. The Freys were anxious to reach Barrowton and be reunited with their kin. Can you blame
them for riding on ahead?
If thats what they did. Do you believe Manderly?
His fathers pale eyes glittered. Did I give you that impression? Still. His lordship is most
distraught.
Not so distraught that he cant eat. Lord Pig must have brought half the food in White Harbor
with him.
Forty wayns full of foodstuffs. Casks of wine and hippocras, barrels of fresh-caught lampreys, a
herd of goats, a hundred pigs, crates of crabs and oysters, a monstrous codfish  Lord Wyman likes to
eat. You may have noticed.
What I noticed was that he brought no hostages.
I noticed that as well.
What do you mean to do about it?
It is a quandary. Lord Roose found an empty cup, wiped it out on the tablecloth, and filled it
from a flagon. Manderly is not alone in throwing feasts, it would seem.
It should have been you who threw the feast, to welcome me back, Ramsay complained, and
it should have been in Barrow Hall, not this pisspot of a castle.
Barrow Hall and its kitchens are not mine to dispose of, his father said mildly. I am only a
guest there. The castle and the town belong to Lady Dustin, and she cannot abide you.
Ramsays face darkened. If I cut off her teats and feed them to my girls, will she abide me then?
Will she abide me if I strip off her skin to make myself a pair of boots?

Unlikely. And those boots would come dear. They would cost us Barrowton, House Dustin, and
the Ryswells. Roose Bolton seated himself across the table from his son. Barbrey Dustin is my second
wifes younger sister, Rodrik Ryswells daughter, sister to Roger, Rickard, and mine own namesake,
Roose, cousin to the other Ryswells. She was fond of my late son and suspects you of having some part
in his demise. Lady Barbrey is a woman who knows how to nurse a grievance. Be grateful for that.
Barrow-ton is staunch for Bolton largely because she still holds Ned Stark to blame for her husbands
death.
Staunch? Ramsay seethed. All she does is spit on me. The day will come when Ill set her
precious wooden town afire. Let her spit on that, see if it puts out the flames.
Roose made a face, as if the ale he was sipping had suddenly gone sour. There are times you
make me wonder if you truly are my seed. My fore-bears were many things, but never fools. No, be
quiet now, I have heard enough. We appear strong for the moment, yes. We have powerful friends in
the Lannisters and Freys, and the grudging support of much of the north  but what do you imagine is
going to happen when one of Ned Starks sons turns up?
Ned Starks sons are all dead, Reek thought. Robb was murdered at the Twins, and Bran and
Rickon  we dipped the heads in tar  His own head was pounding. He did not want to think about
anything that had happened before he knew his name. There were things too hurtful to remember,
thoughts almost as painful as Ramsays flaying knife 
Starks little wolflings are dead, said Ramsay, sloshing some more ale into his cup, and theyll
stay dead. Let them show their ugly faces, and my girls will rip those wolves of theirs to pieces. The
sooner they turn up, the sooner I kill them again.
The elder Bolton sighed. Again? Surely you misspeak. You never slew Lord Eddards sons, those
two sweet boys we loved so well. That was Theon Turncloaks work, remember? How many of our
grudging friends do you imagine wed retain if the truth were known? Only Lady Barbrey, whom you
would turn into a pair of boots  inferior boots. Human skin is not as tough as cowhide and will not wear
as well. By the kings decree you are now a Bolton. Try and act like one. Tales are told of you, Ramsay. I
hear them everywhere. People fear you.
Good.
You are mistaken. It is not good. No tales were ever told of me. Do you think I would be sitting
here if it were otherwise? Your amusements are your own, I will not chide you on that count, but you
must be more discreet. A peaceful land, a quiet people. That has always been my rule. Make it yours.
Is this why you left Lady Dustin and your fat pig wife? So you could come down here and tell
me to be quiet?
Not at all. There are tidings that you need to hear. Lord Stannis has finally left the Wall.

That got Ramsay halfway to his feet, a smile glistening on his wide, wet lips. Is he marching on
the Dreadfort?
He is not, alas. Arnolf does not understand it. He swears that he did all he could to bait the
trap.
I wonder. Scratch a Karstark and youll find a Stark.
After the scratch the Young Wolf gave Lord Rickard, that may be somewhat less true than
formerly. Be that as it may. Lord Stannis has taken Deepwood Motte from the ironmen and restored it
to House Glover. Worse, the mountain clans have joined him, Wull and Norrey and Liddle and the rest.
His strength is growing.
Ours is greater.
Now it is.
Now is the time to smash him. Let me march on Deepwood.
After you are wed.
Ramsay slammed down his cup, and the dregs of his ale erupted across the tablecloth. Im sick
of waiting. We have a girl, we have a tree, and we have lords enough to witness. Ill wed her on the
morrow, plant a son between her legs, and march before her maidens blood has dried.
Shell pray for you to march, Reek thought, and shell pray that you never come back to her bed.
You will plant a son in her, Roose Bolton said, but not here. Ive decided you shall wed the girl
at Winterfell.
That prospect did not appear to please Lord Ramsay. I laid waste to Winterfell, or had you
forgotten?
No, but it appears you have  the ironmen laid waste to Winterfell, and butchered all its
people. Theon Turncloak.
Ramsay gave Reek a suspicious glance. Aye, so he did, but still  a wedding in that ruin?
Even ruined and broken, Winterfell remains Lady Aryas home. What better place to wed her,
bed her, and stake your claim? That is only half of it, however. We would be fools to march on Stannis.
Let Stannis march on us. He is too cautious to come to Barrowton  but he must come to Winterfell. His
clansmen will not abandon the daughter of their precious Ned to such as you. Stannis must march or
lose them  and being the careful commander that he is, he will summon all his friends and allies when
he marches. He will summon Arnolf Karstark.
Ramsay licked his chapped lips. And well have him.

If the gods will it. Roose rose to his feet. Youll wed at Winterfell. I shall inform the lords that
we march in three days and invite them to accompany us.
You are the Warden of the North. Command them.
An invitation will accomplish the same thing. Power tastes best when sweetened by courtesy.
You had best learn that if you ever hope to rule. The Lord of the Dreadfort glanced at Reek. Oh, and
unchain your pet. I am taking him.
Taking him? Where? Hes mine. You cannot have him.
Roose seemed amused by that. All you have I gave you. You would do well to remember that,
bastard. As for this  Reek  if you have not ruined him beyond redemption, he may yet be of some use
to us. Get the keys and remove those chains from him, before you make me rue the day I raped your
mother.
Reek saw the way Ramsays mouth twisted, the spittle glistening between his lips. He feared he
might leap the table with his dagger in his hand. Instead he flushed red, turned his pale eyes from his
fathers paler ones, and went to find the keys. But as he knelt to unlock the fetters around Reeks wrists
and ankles, he leaned close and whispered, Tell him nothing and remember every word he says. Ill
have you back, no matter what that Dustin bitch may tell you. Who are you?
Reek, my lord. Your man. Im Reek, it rhymes with sneak.
It does. When my father brings you back, Im going to take another finger. Ill let you choose
which one.
Unbidden, tears began to trickle down his cheeks. Why? he cried, his voice breaking. I never
asked for him to take me from you. Ill do whatever you want, serve, obey, I  please, no 
Ramsay slapped his face. Take him, he told his father. Hes not even a man. The way he
smells disgusts me.
The moon was rising over the wooden walls of Barrowton when they stepped outside. Reek
could hear the wind sweeping across the rolling plains beyond the town. It was less than a mile from
Barrow Hall to Harwood Stouts modest keep beside the eastern gates. Lord Bolton offered him a horse.
Can you ride?
I  my lord, I  I think so.
Walton, help him mount.
Even with the fetters gone, Reek moved like an old man. His flesh hung loosely on his bones, and
Sour Alyn and Ben Bones said he twitched. And his smell  even the mare theyd brought for him shied
away when he tried to mount.

She was a gentle horse, though, and she knew the way to Barrow Hall. Lord Bolton fell in beside
him as they rode out the gate. The guards fell back to a discreet distance. What would you have me call
you? the lord asked, as they trotted down the broad straight streets of Barrowton.
Reek, Im Reek, it rhymes with wreak. Reek, he said, if it please my lord.
Mlord. Boltons lips parted just enough to show a quarter inch of teeth. It might have been a
smile.
He did not understand. My lord? I said
my lord, when you should have said mlord. Your tongue betrays your birth with every word
you say. If you want to sound a proper peasant, say it as if you had mud in your mouth, or were too
stupid to realize it was two words, not just one.
If it please mymlord.
Better. Your stench is quite appalling.
Yes, mlord. I beg your pardon, mlord.
Why? The way you smell is my sons doing, not your own. I am well aware of that. They rode
past a stable and a shuttered inn with a wheat sheaf painted on its sign. Reek heard music coming
through its windows. I knew the first Reek. He stank, though not for want of washing. I have never
known a cleaner creature, truth be told. He bathed thrice a day and wore flowers in his hair as if he
were a maiden. Once, when my second wife was still alive, he was caught stealing scent from her
bedchamber. I had him whipped for that, a dozen lashes. Even his blood smelled wrong. The next year
he tried it again. This time he drank the perfume and almost died of it. It made no matter. The smell was
something he was born with. A curse, the smallfolk said. The gods had made him stink so that men
would know his soul was rotting. My old maester insisted it was a sign of sickness, yet the boy was
otherwise as strong as a young bull. No one could stand to be near him, so he slept with the pigs  until
the day that Ramsays mother appeared at my gates to demand that I provide a servant for my bastard,
who was growing up wild and unruly. I gave her Reek. It was meant to be amusing, but he and Ramsay
became inseparable. I do wonder, though  was it Ramsay who corrupted Reek, or Reek Ramsay? His
lordship glanced at the new Reek with eyes as pale and strange as two white moons. What was he
whispering whilst he un-chained you?
He  he said  He said to tell you nothing. The words caught in his throat, and he began to
cough and choke.
Breathe deep. I know what he said. Youre to spy on me and keep his secrets. Bolton chuckled.
As if he had secrets. Sour Alyn, Luton, Skinner, and the rest, where does he think they came from? Can
he truly believe they are his men?

His men, Reek echoed. Some comment seemed to be expected of him, but he did not know
what to say.
Has my bastard ever told you how I got him?
That he did know, to his relief. Yes, my  mlord. You met his mother whilst out riding and were
smitten by her beauty.
Smitten? Bolton laughed. Did he use that word? Why, the boy has a singers soul  though if
you believe that song, you may well be dimmer than the first Reek. Even the riding part is wrong. I was
hunting a fox along the Weeping Water when I chanced upon a mill and saw a young woman washing
clothes in the stream. The old miller had gotten himself a new young wife, a girl not half his age. She was
a tall, willowy creature, very healthy-looking. Long legs and small firm breasts, like two ripe plums.
Pretty, in a common sort of way. The moment that I set eyes on her I wanted her. Such was my due. The
maesters will tell you that King Jaehaerys abolished the lords right to the first night to appease his
shrewish queen, but where the old gods rule, old customs linger. The Umbers keep the first night too,
deny it as they may. Certain of the mountain clans as well, and on Skagos  well, only heart trees ever
see half of what they do on Skagos.
This millers marriage had been performed without my leave or knowledge. The man had
cheated me. So I had him hanged, and claimed my rights beneath the tree where he was swaying. If
truth be told, the wench was hardly worth the rope. The fox escaped as well, and on our way back to the
Dreadfort my favorite courser came up lame, so all in all it was a dismal day.
A year later this same wench had the impudence to turn up at the Dreadfort with a squalling,
red-faced monster that she claimed was my own get. I shouldve had the mother whipped and thrown
her child down a well  but the babe did have my eyes. She told me that when her dead husbands
brother saw those eyes, he beat her bloody and drove her from the mill. That annoyed me, so I gave her
the mill and had the brothers tongue cut out, to make certain he did not go running to Winterfell with
tales that might disturb Lord Rickard. Each year I sent the woman some piglets and chickens and a bag of
stars, on the understanding that she was never to tell the boy who had fathered him. A peaceful land, a
quiet people, that has always been my rule.
A fine rule, mlord.
The woman disobeyed me, though. You see what Ramsay is. She made him, her and Reek,
always whispering in his ear about his rights. He should have been content to grind corn. Does he truly
think that he can ever rule the north?
He fights for you, Reek blurted out. Hes strong.
Bulls are strong. Bears. I have seen my bastard fight. He is not entirely to blame. Reek was his
tutor, the first Reek, and Reek was never trained at arms. Ramsay is ferocious, I will grant you, but he
swings that sword like a butcher hacking meat.

Hes not afraid of anyone, mlord.
He should be. Fear is what keeps a man alive in this world of treachery and deceit. Even here in
Barrowton the crows are circling, waiting to feast upon our flesh. The Cerwyns and the Tallharts are not
to be relied on, my fat friend Lord Wyman plots betrayal, and Whoresbane  the Umbers may seem
simple, but they are not without a certain low cunning. Ramsay should fear them all, as I do. The next
time you see him, tell him that.
Tell him  tell him to be afraid? Reek felt ill at the very thought of it. Mlord, I  if I did that,
hed 
I know. Lord Bolton sighed. His blood is bad. He needs to be leeched. The leeches suck away
the bad blood, all the rage and pain. No man can think so full of anger. Ramsay, though  his tainted
blood would poison even leeches, I fear.
He is your only son.
For the moment. I had another, once. Domeric. A quiet boy, but most accomplished. He served
four years as Lady Dustins page, and three in the Vale as a squire to Lord Redfort. He played the high
harp, read histories, and rode like the wind. Horses  the boy was mad for horses, Lady Dustin will tell
you. Not even Lord Rickards daughter could outrace him, and that one was half a horse herself. Redfort
said he showed great promise in the lists. A great jouster must be a great horseman first.
Yes, mlord. Domeric. I  I have heard his name 
Ramsay killed him. A sickness of the bowels, Maester Uthor says, but I say poison. In the Vale,
Domeric had enjoyed the company of Redforts sons. He wanted a brother by his side, so he rode up the
Weeping Water to seek my bastard out. I forbade it, but Domeric was a man grown and thought that he
knew better than his father. Now his bones lie beneath the Dreadfort with the bones of his brothers,
who died still in the cradle, and I am left with Ramsay. Tell me, my lord  if the kinslayer is accursed,
what is a father to do when one son slays another?
The question frightened him. Once he had heard Skinner say that the Bastard had killed his
trueborn brother, but he had never dared to believe it. He could be wrong. Brothers die sometimes, it
does not mean that they were killed. My brothers died, and I never killed them. My lord has a new wife
to give him sons.
And wont my bastard love that? Lady Walda is a Frey, and she has a fertile feel to her. I have
become oddly fond of my fat little wife. The two before her never made a sound in bed, but this one
squeals and shudders. I find that quite endearing. If she pops out sons the way she pops in tarts, the
Dreadfort will soon be overrun with Boltons. Ramsay will kill them all, of course. Thats for the best. I will
not live long enough to see new sons to manhood, and boy lords are the bane of any House. Walda will
grieve to see them die, though.

Reeks throat was dry. He could hear the wind rattling the bare branches of the elms that lined
the street. My lord, I
Mlord, remember?
Mlord. If I might ask  why did you want me? Im no use to anyone, Im not even a man, Im
broken, and  the smell 
A bath and change of clothes will make you smell sweeter.
A bath? Reek felt a clenching in his guts. I  I would sooner not, mlord. Please. I have 
wounds, I  and these clothes, Lord Ramsay gave them to me, he  he said that I was never to take
them off, save at his command 
You are wearing rags, Lord Bolton said, quite patiently. Filthy things, torn and stained and
stinking of blood and urine. And thin. You must be cold. Well put you in lambswool, soft and warm.
Perhaps a fur-lined cloak. Would you like that?
No. He could not let them take the clothes Lord Ramsay gave him. He could not let them see
him.
Would you prefer to dress in silk and velvet? There was a time when you were fond of such, I
do recall.
No, he insisted, shrilly. No, I only want these clothes. Reeks clothes. Im Reek, it rhymes with
peek. His heart was beating like a drum, and his voice rose to a frightened squeak. I dont want a bath.
Please, mlord, dont take my clothes.
Will you let us wash them, at least?
No. No, mlord. Please. He clutched his tunic to his chest with both hands and hunched down
in the saddle, half-afraid that Roose Bolton might command his guardsmen to tear the clothes off him
right there in the street.
As you wish. Boltons pale eyes looked empty in the moonlight, as if there were no one behind
them at all. I mean you no harm, you know. I owe you much and more.
You do? Some part of him was screaming, This is a trap, he is playing with you, the son is just
the shadow of the father. Lord Ramsay played with his hopes all the time. What  what do you owe
me, mlord?
The north. The Starks were done and doomed the night that you took Winterfell. He waved a
pale hand, dismissive. All this is only squabbling over spoils.
Their short journey reached its end at the wooden walls of Barrow Hall. Banners flew from its
square towers, flapping in the wind: the flayed man of the Dreadfort, the battle-axe of Cerwyn,
Tallharts pines, the merman of Manderly, old Lord Lockes crossed keys, the Umber giant and the stony

hand of Flint, the Hornwood moose. For the Stouts, chevrony russet and gold, for Slate, a grey field
within a double tressure white. Four horseheads proclaimed the four Ryswells of the Rillsone grey,
one black, one gold, one brown. The jape was that the Ryswells could not even agree upon the color of
their arms. Above them streamed the stag-and-lion of the boy who sat upon the Iron Throne a thousand
leagues away.
Reek listened to the vanes turning on the old windmill as they rode beneath the gatehouse into
a grassy courtyard where stableboys ran out to take their horses. This way, if you please. Lord Bolton
led him toward the keep, where the banners were those of the late Lord Dustin and his widowed wife.
His showed a spiked crown above crossed longaxes; hers quartered those same arms with Rodrik
Ryswells golden horsehead.
As he climbed a wide flight of wooden steps to the hall, Reeks legs began to shake. He had to
stop to steady them, staring up at the grassy slopes of the Great Barrow. Some claimed it was the grave
of the First King, who had led the First Men to Westeros. Others argued that it must be some King of the
Giants who was buried there, to account for its size. A few had even been known to say it was no
barrow, just a hill, but if so it was a lonely hill, for most of the barrowlands were flat and windswept.
Inside the hall, a woman stood beside the hearth, warming thin hands above the embers of a
dying fire. She was clad all in black, from head to heel, and wore no gold nor gems, but she was
highborn, that was plain to see. Though there were wrinkles at the corners of her mouth and more
around her eyes, she still stood tall, unbent, and handsome. Her hair was brown and grey in equal parts
and she wore it tied behind her head in a widows knot.
Who is this? she said. Where is the boy? Did your bastard refuse to give him up? Is this old
man his  oh, gods be good, what is that smell? Has this creature soiled himself?
He has been with Ramsay. Lady Barbrey, allow me to present the rightful Lord of the Iron
Islands, Theon of House Greyjoy.
No, he thought, no, dont say that name, Ramsay will hear you, hell know, hell know, hell hurt
me.
Her mouth pursed. He is not what I expected.
He is what we have.
What did your bastard do to him?
Removed some skin, I would imagine. A few small parts. Nothing too essential.
Is he mad?
He may be. Does it matter?

Reek could hear no more. Please, mlord, mlady, theres been some mistake. He fell to his
knees, trembling like a leaf in a winter storm, tears streaming down his ravaged cheeks. Im not him,
Im not the turncloak, he died at Winterfell. My name is Reek. He had to remember his name. It
rhymes with freak.
TYRION
The Selaesori Qhoran was seven days from Volantis when Penny finally emerged from her cabin,
creeping up on deck like some timid woodland creature emerging from a long winters sleep.
It was dusk and the red priest had lit his nightfire in the great iron brazier amidships as the crew
gathered round to pray. Moqorros voice was a bass drum that seemed to boom from somewhere deep
within his massive torso. We thank you for your sun that keeps us warm, he prayed. We thank you for
your stars that watch over us as we sail this cold black sea. A huge man, taller than Ser Jorah and wide
enough to make two of him, the priest wore scarlet robes embroidered at sleeve and hem and collar
with orange satin flames. His skin was black as pitch, his hair as white as snow; the flames tattooed
across his cheeks and brow yellow and orange. His iron staff was as tall as he was and crowned with a
dragons head; when he stamped its butt upon the deck, the dragons maw spat crackling green flame.
His guardsmen, five slave warriors of the Fiery Hand, led the responses. They chanted in the
tongue of Old Volantis, but Tyrion had heard the prayers enough to grasp the essence. Light our fire and
protect us from the dark, blah blah, light our way and keep us toasty warm, the night is dark and full of
terrors, save us from the scary things, and blah blah blah some more.
He knew better than to voice such thoughts aloud. Tyrion Lannister had no use for any god, but
on this ship it was wise to show a certain respect for red Rhllor. Jorah Mormont had removed Tyrons
chains and fetters once they were safely under way, and the dwarf did not wish to give him cause to clap
them on again.
The Selaesori Qhoran was a wallowing tub of five hundred tons, with a deep hold, high castles
fore and aft, and a single mast between. At her forecastle stood a grotesque figurehead, some
worm-eaten wooden eminence with a constipated look and a scroll tucked up under one arm. Tyrion
had never seen an uglier ship. Her crew was no prettier. Her captain, a mean-mouthed, flinty,
kettle-bellied man with close-set, greedy eyes, was a bad cyvasse player and a worse loser. Under him
served four mates, freedmen all, and fifty slaves bound to the ship, each with a crude version of the
cogs figurehead tattooed upon one cheek. No-Nose, the sailors liked to call Tyrion, no matter how many
times he told them his name was Hugor Hill.
Three of the mates and more than three-quarters of the crew were fervent worshipers of the
Lord of Light. Tyrion was less certain about the captain, who always emerged for the evening prayers but

took no other part in them. But Moqorro was the true master of the Selaesori Qhoran, at least for this
voyage.
Lord of Light, bless your slave Moqorro, and light his way in the dark places of the world, the
red priest boomed. And defend your righteous slave Benerro. Grant him courage. Grant him wisdom.
Fill his heart with fire.
That was when Tyrion noticed Penny, watching the mummery from the steep wooden stair that
led down beneath the sterncastle. She stood on one of the lower steps, so only the top of her head was
visible. Beneath her hood her eyes shone big and white in the light of the nightfire. She had her dog with
her, the big grey hound she rode in the mock jousts.
My lady, Tyrion called softly. In truth, she was no lady, but he could not bring himself to
mouth that silly name of hers, and he was not about to call her girl or dwarf.
She cringed back. I  I did not see you.
Well, I am small.
I  I was unwell  Her dog barked.
Sick with grief, you mean. If I can be of help 
No. And quick as that she was gone again, retreating back below to the cabin she shared with
her dog and sow. Tyrion could not fault her. The crew of the Selaesori Qhoran had been pleased enough
when he first came on board; a dwarf was good luck, after all. His head had been rubbed so often and so
vigorously that it was a wonder he wasnt bald. But Penny had met with a more mixed reaction. She
might be a dwarf, but she was also a woman, and women were bad luck aboard ship. For every man
who tried to rub her head, there were three who muttered maledictions under their breath when she
went by.
And the sight of me can only be salt in her wound. They hacked off her brothers head in the
hope that it was mine, yet here I sit like some bloody gargoyle, offering empty consolations. If I were her,
Id want nothing more than to shove me into the sea.
He felt nothing but pity for the girl. She did not deserve the horror visited on her in Volantis, any
more than her brother had. The last time he had seen her, just before they left port, her eyes had been
raw from crying, two ghastly red holes in a wan, pale face. By the time they raised sail she had locked
herself in her cabin with her dog and her pig, but at night they could hear her weeping. Only yesterday
he had heard one of the mates say that they ought to throw her overboard before her tears could
swamp the ship. Tyrion was not entirely sure he had been japing.
When the evening prayers had ended and the ships crew had once again dispersed, some to
their watch and others to food and rum and hammocks, Moqorro remained beside his nightfire, as he

did every night. The red priest rested by day but kept vigil through the dark hours, to tend his sacred
flames so that the sun might return to them at dawn.
Tyrion squatted across from him and warmed his hands against the nights chill. Moqorro took
no notice of him for several moments. He was staring into the flickering flames, lost in some vision. Does
he see days yet to come, as he claims? If so, that was a fearsome gift. After a time the priest raised his
eyes to meet the dwarfs. Hugor Hill, he said, inclining his head in a solemn nod. Have you come to
pray with me?
Someone told me that the night is dark and full of terrors. What do you see in those flames?
Dragons, Moqorro said in the Common Tongue of Westeros. He spoke it very well, with hardly
a trace of accent. No doubt that was one reason the high priest Benerro had chosen him to bring the
faith of Rhllor to Daenerys Targaryen. Dragons old and young, true and false, bright and dark. And you.
A small man with a big shadow, snarling in the midst of all.
Snarling? An amiable fellow like me? Tyrion was almost flattered. And no doubt that is just
what he intends. Every fool loves to hear that hes important. Perhaps it was Penny you saw. Were
almost of a size.
No, my friend.
My friend? When did that happen, I wonder? Did you see how long it will take us to reach
Meereen?
You are eager to behold the worlds deliverer?
Yes and no. The worlds deliverer may snick off my head or give me to her dragons as a savory.
Not me, said Tyrion. For me, it is all about the olives. Though I fear I may grow old and die before I
taste one. I could dog-paddle faster than were sailing. Tell me, was Selaesori Qhoran a tri-arch or a
turtle?
The red priest chuckled. Neither. Qhoran is  not a ruler, but one who serves and counsels
such, and helps conduct his business. You of Westeros might say steward or magister.
Kings Hand? That amused him. And selaesori?
Moqorro touched his nose. Imbued with a pleasant aroma. Fragrant, would you say? Flowery?
So Selaesori Qhoran means Stinky Steward, more or less?
Fragrant Steward, rather.
Tyrion gave a crooked grin. I believe I will stay with Stinky. But I do thank you for the lesson.
I am pleased to have enlightened you. Perhaps someday you will let me teach you the truth of
Rhllor as well.

Someday. When I am a head on a spike.
The quarters he shared with Ser Jorah were a cabin only by courtesy; the dank, dark,
foul-smelling closet had barely enough space to hang a pair of sleeping hammocks, one above the other.
He found Mormont stretched out in the lower one, swaying slowly with the motion of the ship. The girl
finally poked her nose abovedecks, Tyrion told him. One look at me and she scurried right back down
below.
Youre not a pretty sight.
Not all of us can be as comely as you. The girl is lost. It would not surprise me if the poor
creature wasnt sneaking up to jump over the side and drown herself.
The poor creatures name is Penny.
I know her name. He hated her name. Her brother had gone by the name of Groat, though his
true name had been Oppo. Groat and Penny. The smallest coins, worth the least, and whats worse, they
chose the names themselves. It left a bad taste in Tyrions mouth. By any name, she needs a friend.
Ser Jorah sat up in his hammock. Befriend her, then. Marry her, for all I care.
That left a bad taste in his mouth as well. Like with like, is that your notion? Do you mean to
find a she-bear for yourself, ser?
You were the one who insisted that we bring her.
I said we could not abandon her in Volantis. That does not mean I want to fuck her. She wants
me dead, have you forgotten? Im the last person shes like to want as a friend.
Youre both dwarfs.
Yes, and so was her brother, who was killed because some drunken fools took him for me.
Feeling guilty, are you?
No. Tyrion bristled. I have sins enough to answer for; Ill have no part of this one. I might
have nurtured some ill will toward her and her brother for the part they played the night of Joffreys
wedding, but I never wished them harm.
You are a harmless creature, to be sure. Innocent as a lamb. Ser Jorah got to his feet. The
dwarf girl is your burden. Kiss her, kill her, or avoid her, as you like. Its naught to me. He shouldered
past Tyrion and out of the cabin.
Twice exiled, and small wonder, Tyrion thought. Id exile him too if I could. The man is cold,
brooding, sullen, deaf to humor. And those are his good points. Ser Jorah spent most of his waking hours
pacing the forecastle or leaning on the rail, gazing out to sea. Looking for his silver queen. Looking for
Daenerys, willing the ship to sail faster. Well, I might do the same if Tysha waited in Meereen.

Could Slavers Bay be where whores went? It seemed unlikely. From what hed read, the slaver
cities were the place where whores were made. Mormont should have bought one for himself. A pretty
slave girl might have done wonders to improve his temper  particularly one with silvery hair, like the
whore who had been sitting on his cock back in Selhorys.
On the river Tyrion had to endure Griff, but there had at least been the mystery of the captains
true identity to divert him and the more congenial companionship of the rest of the poleboats little
company. On the cog, alas, everyone was just who they appeared to be, no one was particularly
congenial, and only the red priest was interesting. Him, and maybe Penny. But the girl hates me, and she
should.
Life aboard the Selaesori Qhoran was nothing if not tedious, Tyrion had found. The most exciting
part of his day was pricking his toes and fingers with a knife. On the river there had been wonders to
behold: giant turtles, ruined cities, stone men, naked septas. One never knew what might be lurking
around the next bend. The days and nights at sea were all the same. Leaving Volantis, the cog had sailed
within sight of land at first, so Tyrion could gaze at passing headlands, watch clouds of seabirds rise from
stony cliffs and crumbling watchtowers, count bare brown islands as they slipped past. He saw many
other ships as well: fishing boats, lumbering merchantmen, proud galleys with their oars lashing the
waves into white foam. But once they struck out into deeper waters, there was only sea and sky, air and
water. The water looked like water. The sky looked like sky. Sometimes there was a cloud. Too much
blue.
And the nights were worse. Tyrion slept badly at the best of times, and this was far from that.
Sleep meant dreams as like as not, and in his dreams the Sorrows waited, and a stony king with his
fathers face. That left him with the beggars choice of climbing up into his hammock and listening to
Jorah Mormont snore beneath him, or remaining abovedecks to contemplate the sea. On moonless
nights the water was as black as maesters ink, from horizon to horizon. Dark and deep and forbidding,
beautiful in a chilly sort of way, but when he looked at it too long Tyrion found himself musing on how
easy it would be to slip over the gunwale and drop down into that darkness. One very small splash, and
the pathetic little tale that was his life would soon be done. But what if there is a hell and my fathers
waiting for me?
The best part of each evening was supper. The food was not especially good, but it was plentiful,
so that was where the dwarf went next. The galley where he took his meals was a cramped and
uncomfortable space, with a ceiling so low that the taller passengers were always in danger of cracking
their heads, a hazard the strapping slave soldiers of the Fiery Hand seemed particularly prone to. As
much as Tyrion enjoyed sniggering at that, he had come to prefer taking his meals alone. Sitting at a
crowded table with men who did not share a common language with you, listening to them talk and jape
whilst understanding none of it, had quickly grown wearisome. Particularly since he always found
himself wondering if the japes and laughter were directed at him.
The galley was also where the ships books were kept. Her captain being an especially bookish
man, she carried threea collection of nautical poetry that went from bad to worse, a well-thumbed

tome about the erotic adventures of a young slave girl in a Lysene pillow house, and the fourth and final
volume of The Life of the Triarch Belicho, a famous Volantene patriot whose unbroken succession of
conquests and triumphs ended rather abruptly when he was eaten by giants. Tyrion had finished them
all by their third day at sea. Then, for lack of any other books, he started reading them again. The slave
girls story was the worst written but the most engrossing, and that was the one he took down this
evening to see him through a supper of buttered beets, cold fish stew, and biscuits that could have been
used to drive nails.
He was reading the girls account of the day she and her sister were taken by slavers when
Penny entered the galley. Oh, she said, I thought  I did not mean to disturb mlord, I 
You are not disturbing me. Youre not going to try to kill me again, I hope.
No. She looked away, her face reddening. In that case, I would welcome some company.
Theres little enough aboard this ship. Tyrion closed the book. Come. Sit. Eat. The girl had left most of
her meals untouched outside her cabin door. By now she must be starving. The stew is almost edible.
The fish is fresh, at least.
No, I  I choked on a fish bone once, I cant eat fish.
Have some wine, then. He filled a cup and slid it toward her. Compliments of our captain.
Closer to piss than Arbor gold, if truth be told, but even piss tastes better than the black tar rum the
sailors drink. It might help you sleep.
The girl made no move to touch the cup. Thank you, mlord, but no. She backed away. I
should not be bothering you.
Do you mean to spend your whole life running away? Tyrion asked before she could slip back
out the door.
That stopped her. Her cheeks turned a bright pink, and he was afraid she was about to start
weeping again. Instead she thrust out her lip defiantly and said, Youre running too.
I am, he confessed, but I am running to and you are running from, and theres a world of
difference there.
We would never have had to run at all but for you.
It took some courage to say that to my face. Are you speaking of Kings Landing or Volantis?
Both. Tears glistened in her eyes. Everything. Why couldnt you just come joust with us, the
way the king wanted? You wouldnt have gotten hurt. What would that have cost mlord, to climb up on
our dog and ride a tilt to please the boy? It was just a bit of fun. They would have laughed at you, thats
all.

They would have laughed at me, said Tyrion. I made them laugh at Joff instead. And wasnt
that a clever ploy?
My brother says that is a good thing, making people laugh. A noble thing, and honorable. My
brother says  he  The tears fell then, rolling down her face.
I am sorry about your brother. Tyrion had said the same words to her before, back in Volantis,
but she was so far gone in grief back there that he doubted she had heard them.
She heard them now. Sorry. You are sorry. Her lip was trembling, her cheeks were wet, her
eyes were red-rimmed holes. We left Kings Landing that very night. My brother said it was for the best,
before someone wondered if wed had some part in the kings death and decided to torture us to find
out. We went to Tyrosh first. My brother thought that would be far enough, but it wasnt. We knew a
juggler there. For years and years he would juggle every day by the Fountain of the Drunken God. He
was old, so his hands were not as deft as they had been, and sometimes he would drop his balls and
chase them across the square, but the Tyroshi would laugh and throw him coins all the same. Then one
morning we heard that his body had been found at the Temple of Trios. Trios has three heads, and
theres a big statue of him beside the temple doors. The old man had been cut into three parts and
pushed inside the threefold mouths of Trios. Only when the parts were sewn back together, his head
was gone.
A gift for my sweet sister. He was another dwarf.
A little man, aye. Like you, and Oppo. Groat. Are you sorry about the juggler too?
I never knew your juggler existed until this very moment  but yes, I am sorry he is dead.
He died for you. His blood is on your hands.
The accusation stung, coming so hard on the heels of Jorah Mormonts words. His blood is on
my sisters hands, and the hands of the brutes who killed him. My hands  Tyrion turned them over,
inspected them, coiled them into fists.  my hands are crusted with old blood, aye. Call me kinslayer,
and you wont be wrong. Kingslayer, Ill answer to that one as well. I have killed mothers, fathers,
nephews, lovers, men and women, kings and whores. A singer once annoyed me, so I had the bastard
stewed. But I have never killed a juggler, nor a dwarf, and I am not to blame for what happened to your
bloody brother.
Penny picked the cup of wine hed poured for her and threw it in his face. Just like my sweet
sister. He heard the galley door slam but never saw her leave. His eyes were stinging, and the world was
a blur. So much for befriending her.
Tyrion Lannister had scant experience with other dwarfs. His lord father had not welcomed any
reminders of his sons deformities, and such mummers as featured little folk in their troupes soon
learned to stay away from Lannisport and Casterly Rock, at the risk of his displeasure. Growing up,
Tyrion heard reports of a dwarf jester at the seat of the Dornish Lord Fowler, a dwarf maester in service

on the Fingers, and a female dwarf amongst the silent sisters, but he never felt the least need to seek
them out. Less reliable tales also reached his ears, of a dwarf witch who haunted a hill in the riverlands,
and a dwarf whore in Kings Landing renowned for coupling with dogs. His own sweet sister had told him
of the last, even offering to find him a bitch in heat if he cared to try it out. When he asked politely if she
were referring to herself, Cersei had thrown a cup of wine in his face. That was red, as I recall, and this is
gold. Tyrion mopped at his face with a sleeve. His eyes still stung.
He did not see Penny again until the day of the storm.
The salt air lay still and heavy that morning, but the western sky was a fiery red, streaked with
lowering clouds that glowed as bright as Lannister crimson. Sailors were dashing about battening
hatches, running lines, clearing the decks, lashing down everything that was not already lashed down.
Bad wind coming, one warned him. No-Nose should get below.
Tyrion remembered the storm hed suffered crossing the narrow sea, the way the deck had
jumped beneath his feet, the hideous creaking sounds the ship had made, the taste of wine and vomit.
No-Nose will stay up here. If the gods wanted him, he would sooner die by drowning than choking on
his own vomit. And overhead the cogs canvas sail rippled slowly, like the fur of some great beast stirring
from a long sleep, then filled with a sudden crack that turned every head on the ship.
The winds drove the cog before them, far off her chosen course. Behind them black clouds piled
one atop another against a blood-red sky. By midmorning they could see lightning flickering to the west,
followed by the distant crash of thunder. The sea grew rougher, and dark waves rose up to smash
against the hull of the Stinky Steward. It was about then that the crew started hauling down the canvas.
Tyrion was underfoot amid-ships, so he climbed the forecastle and hunkered down, savoring the lash of
cold rain on his cheeks. The cog went up and down, bucking more wildly than any horse hed ever
ridden, lifting with each wave before sliding down into the troughs between, jarring him to the bones.
Even so, it was better here where he could see than down below locked in some airless cabin.
By the time the storm broke, evening was upon them and Tyrion Lannister was soaked through
to the smallclothes, yet somehow he felt elated  and even more so later, when he found a drunken
Jorah Mor-mont in a pool of vomit in their cabin.
The dwarf lingered in the galley after supper, celebrating his survival by sharing a few tots of
black tar rum with the ships cook, a great greasy loutish Volantene who spoke only one word of the
Common Tongue (fuck), but played a ferocious game of cyvasse, particularly when drunk. They played
three games that night. Tyrion won the first, then lost the other two. After that he decided that hed had
enough and stumbled back up on deck to clear his head of rum and elephants alike.
He found Penny on the forecastle, where he had so often found Ser Jorah, standing by the rail
beside the cogs hideous half-rotted figurehead and gazing out across the inky sea. From behind, she
looked as small and vulnerable as a child.

Tyrion thought it best to leave her undisturbed, but it was too late. She had heard him. Hugor
Hill.
If you like. We both know better. I am sorry to intrude on you. I will retire.
No. Her face was pale and sad, but she did not look to have been crying. Im sorry too. About
the wine. It wasnt you who killed my brother or that poor old man in Tyrosh.
I played a part, though not by choice.
I miss him so much. My brother. I 
I understand. He found himself thinking of Jaime. Count yourself lucky. Your brother died
before he could betray you.
I thought I wanted to die, she said, but today when the storm came and I thought the ship
would sink, I  I 
You realized that you wanted to live after all. I have been there too. Something else we have in
common.
Her teeth were crooked, which made her shy with her smiles, but she smiled now. Did you truly
cook a singer in a stew?
Who, me? No. I do not cook.
When Penny giggled, she sounded like the sweet young girl she was  seventeen, eighteen, no
more than nineteen. What did he do, this singer?
He wrote a song about me. For she was his secret treasure, she was his shame and his bliss.
And a chain and a keep are nothing, compared to a womans kiss. It was queer how quick the words
came back to him. Perhaps they had never left him. Hands of gold are always cold, but a womans hands
are warm.
It must have been a very bad song.
Not really. It was no Rains of Castamere, mind you, but some parts were  well 
How did it go?
He laughed. No. You do not want to hear me sing.
My mother used to sing to us when we were children. My brother and me. She always sa id that
it didnt matter what your voice was like so long as you loved the song.
Was she  ?

 a little person? No, but our father was. His own father sold him to a slaver when he was
three, but he grew up to be such a famous mummer that he bought his freedom. He traveled to all the
Free Cities, and Westeros as well. In Oldtown they used to call him Hop-Bean.
Of course they did. Tyrion tried not to wince. Hes dead now, Penny went on. My mother too.
Oppo  he was my last family, and now hes gone too. She turned her head away and gazed out across
the sea. What will I do? Where will I go? I have no trade, just the jousting show, and that needs two.
No, thought Tyrion. That is not a place you want to go, girl. Do not ask that of me. Do not even
think it. Find yourself some likely orphan boy, he suggested.
Penny did not seem to hear that. It was Fathers idea to do the tilts. He even trained the first
pig, but by then he was too sick to ride her, so Oppo took his place. I always rode the dog. We
performed for the Sealord of Braavos once, and he laughed so hard that afterward he gave each of us a
 a grand gift.
Is that where my sister found you? In Braavos?
Your sister? The girl looked lost. Queen Cersei.
Penny shook her head. She never  it was a man who came to us, in Pentos. Osmund. No,
Oswald. Something like that. Oppo met with him, not me. Oppo made all of our arrangements. My
brother always knew what to do, where we should go next.
Meereen is where were going next.
She gave him a puzzled look. Qarth, you mean. Were bound for Qarth, by way of New Ghis.
Meereen. Youll ride your dog for the dragon queen and come away with your weight in gold.
Best start eating more, so youll be nice and plump when you joust before Her Grace.
Penny did not return the smile. By myself, all I can do is ride around in circles. And even if the
queen should laugh, where will I go afterward? We never stay in one place long. The first time they see
us they laugh and laugh, but by the fourth or fifth time, they know what were going to do before we do
it. Then they stop laughing, so we have to go somewhere new. We make the most coin in the big cities,
but I always liked the little towns the best. Places like that, the people have no silver, but they feed us at
their own tables, and the children follow us everywhere.
Thats because they have never seen a dwarf before, in their wretched pisspot towns, Tyrion
thought. The bloody brats would follow around a two-headed goat if one turned up. Until they got bored
with its bleating and slaughtered it for supper. But he had no wish to make her weep again, so instead
he said, Daenerys has a kind heart and a generous nature. It was what she needed to hear. She will
find a place for you at her court, I dont doubt. A safe place, beyond my sisters reach.
Penny turned back to him. And you will be there too.

Unless Daenerys decides she needs some Lannister blood, to pay for the Targaryen blood my
brother shed. I will.
After that, the dwarf girl was seen more frequently above deck. The next day Tyrion
encountered her and her spotted sow amidships in midafternoon, when the air was warm and the sea
calm. Her name is Pretty, the girl told him, shyly.
Pretty the pig and Penny the girl, he thought. Someone has a deal to answer for. Penny gave
Tyrion some acorns, and he let Pretty eat them from his hand. Do not think I dont see what you are
doing, girl, he thought, as the big sow snuffled and squealed.
Soon they began to take their meals together. Some nights it was just the two of them; at other
meals they crowded in with Moqorros guards. The fingers, Tyrion called them; they were men of the
Fiery Hand, after all, and there were five of them. Penny laughed at that, a sweet sound, though not one
that he heard often. Her wound was too fresh, her grief too deep.
He soon had her calling the ship the Stinky Steward, though she got somewhat wroth with him
whenever he called Pretty Bacon. To atone for that Tyrion made an attempt to teach her cyvasse,
though he soon realized that was a lost cause. No, he said, a dozen times, the dragon flies, not the
elephants.
That same night, she came right out and asked him if he would like to tilt with her. No, he
answered. Only later did it occur to him that perhaps tilt did not mean tilt. His answer would still have
been no, but he might not have been so brusque.
Back in the cabin he shared with Jorah Mormont, Tyrion twisted in his hammock for hours,
slipping in and out of sleep. His dreams were full of grey, stony hands reaching for him from out of the
fog, and a stair that led up to his father.
Finally he gave it up and made his way up top for a breath of night air. The Selaesori Qhoran had
furled her big striped sail for the night, and her decks were all but deserted. One of the mates was on
the sterncastle, and amidships Moqorro sat by his brazier, where a few small flames still danced
amongst the embers.
Only the brightest stars were visible, all to the west. A dull red glow lit the sky to the northeast,
the color of a blood bruise. Tyrion had never seen a bigger moon. Monstrous, swollen, it looked as if it
had swallowed the sun and woken with a fever. Its twin, floating on the sea beyond the ship, shimmered
red with every wave. What hour is this? he asked Moqorro. That cannot be sunrise unless the east
has moved. Why is the sky red?
The sky is always red above Valyria, Hugor Hill.
A cold chill went down his back. Are we close?

Closer than the crew would like, Moqorro said in his deep voice. Do you know the stories, in
your Sunset Kingdoms?
I know some sailors say that any man who lays eyes upon that coast is doomed. He did not
believe such tales himself, no more than his uncle had. Gerion Lannister had set sail for Valyria when
Tyrion was eighteen, intent on recovering the lost ancestral blade of House Lannister and any other
treasures that might have survived the Doom. Tyrion had wanted desperately to go with them, but his
lord father had dubbed the voyage a fools quest, and forbidden him to take part.
And perhaps he was not so wrong. Almost a decade had passed since the Laughing Lion headed
out from Lannisport, and Gerion had never returned. The men Lord Tywin sent to seek after him had
traced his course as far as Volantis, where half his crew had deserted him and he had bought slaves to
replace them. No free man would willingly sign aboard a ship whose captain spoke openly of his intent
to sail into the Smoking Sea. So those are fires of the Fourteen Flames were seeing, reflected on the
clouds?
Fourteen or fourteen thousand. What man dares count them? It is not wise for mortals to look
too deeply at those fires, my friend. Those are the fires of gods own wrath, and no human flame can
match them. We are small creatures, men.
Some smaller than others. Valyria. It was written that on the day of Doom every hill for five
hundred miles had split asunder to fill the air with ash and smoke and fire, blazes so hot and hungry that
even the dragons in the sky were engulfed and consumed. Great rents had opened in the earth,
swallowing palaces, temples, entire towns. Lakes boiled or turned to acid, mountains burst, fiery
fountains spewed molten rock a thousand feet into the air, red clouds rained down dragonglass and the
black blood of demons, and to the north the ground splintered and collapsed and fell in on itself and an
angry sea came rushing in. The proudest city in all the world was gone in an instant, its fabled empire
vanished in a day, the Lands of the Long Summer scorched and drowned and blighted.
An empire built on blood and fire. The Valyrians reaped the seed they had sown. Does our
captain mean to test the curse?
Our captain would prefer to be fifty leagues farther out to sea, well away from that accursed
shore, but I have commanded him to steer the shortest course. Others seek Daenerys too.
Griff, with his young prince. Could all that talk of the Golden Company sailing west have been a
feint? Tyrion considered saying something, then thought better. It seemed to him that the prophecy
that drove the red priests had room for just one hero. A second Targaryen would only serve to confuse
them. Have you seen these others in your fires? he asked, warily.
Only their shadows, Moqorro said. One most of all. A tall and twisted thing with one black
eye and ten long arms, sailing on a sea of blood.

BRAN
The moon was a crescent, thin and sharp as the blade of a knife. A pale sun rose and set and
rose again. Red leaves whispered in the wind. Dark clouds filled the skies and turned to storms.
Lightning flashed and thunder rumbled, and dead men with black hands and bright blue eyes shuffled
round a cleft in the hillside but could not enter. Under the hill, the broken boy sat upon a weirwood
throne, listening to whispers in the dark as ravens walked up and down his arms.
You will never walk again, the three-eyed crow had promised, but you will fly. Sometimes
the sound of song would drift up from someplace far below. The children of the forest, Old Nan would
have called the singers, but those who sing the song of earth was their own name for themselves, in the
True Tongue that no human man could speak. The ravens could speak it, though. Their small black eyes
were full of secrets, and they would caw at him and peck his skin when they heard the songs.
The moon was fat and full. Stars wheeled across a black sky. Rain fell and froze, and tree limbs
snapped from the weight of the ice. Bran and Meera made up names for those who sang the song of
earth: Ash and Leaf and Scales, Black Knife and Snowylocks and Coals. Their true names were too long
for human tongues, said Leaf. Only she could speak the Common Tongue, so what the others thought of
their new names Bran never learned.
After the bone-grinding cold of the lands beyond the Wall, the caves were blessedly warm, and
when the chill crept out of the rock the singers would light fires to drive it off again. Down here there
was no wind, no snow, no ice, no dead things reaching out to grab you, only dreams and rushlight and
the kisses of the ravens. And the whisperer in darkness.
The last greenseer, the singers called him, but in Brans dreams he was still a three-eyed crow.
When Meera Reed had asked him his true name, he made a ghastly sound that might have been a
chuckle. I wore many names when I was quick, but even I once had a mother, and the name she gave
me at her breast was Brynden.
I have an uncle Brynden, Bran said. Hes my mothers uncle, really. Brynden Blackfish, hes
called.
Your uncle may have been named for me. Some are, still. Not so many as before. Men forget.
Only the trees remember. His voice was so soft that Bran had to strain to hear.
Most of him has gone into the tree, explained the singer Meera called Leaf. He has lived
beyond his mortal span, and yet he lingers. For us, for you, for the realms of men. Only a little strength
remains in his flesh. He has a thousand eyes and one, but there is much to watch. One day you will
know.
What will I know? Bran asked the Reeds afterward, when they came with torches burning
brightly in their hand, to carry him back to a small chamber off the big cavern where the singers had
made beds for them to sleep. What do the trees remember?

The secrets of the old gods, said Jojen Reed. Food and fire and rest had helped restore him
after the ordeals of their journey, but he seemed sadder now, sullen, with a weary, haunted look about
the eyes. Truths the First Men knew, forgotten now in Winterfell  but not in the wet wild. We live
closer to the green in our bogs and crannogs, and we remember. Earth and water, soil and stone, oaks
and elms and willows, they were here before us all and will still remain when we are gone.
So will you, said Meera. That made Bran sad. What if I dont want to remain when you are
gone? he almost asked, but he swallowed the words unspoken. He was almost a man grown, and he did
not want Meera to think he was some weepy babe. Maybe you could be greenseers too, he said
instead.
No, Bran. Now Meera sounded sad. It is given to a few to drink of that green fountain whilst
still in mortal flesh, to hear the whisperings of the leaves and see as the trees see, as the gods see, said
Jojen. Most are not so blessed. The gods gave me only greendreams. My task was to get you here. My
part in this is done.
The moon was a black hole in the sky. Wolves howled in the wood, sniffing through the
snowdrifts after dead things. A murder of ravens erupted from the hillside, screaming their sharp cries,
black wings beating above a white world. A red sun rose and set and rose again, painting the snows in
shades of rose and pink. Under the hill, Jojen brooded, Meera fretted, and Hodor wandered through
dark tunnels with a sword in his right hand and a torch in his left. Or was it Bran wandering?
No one must ever know.
The great cavern that opened on the abyss was as black as pitch, black as tar, blacker than the
feathers of a crow. Light entered as a trespasser, unwanted and unwelcome, and soon was gone again;
cookfires, candles, and rushes burned for a little while, then guttered out again, their brief lives at an
end.
The singers made Bran a throne of his own, like the one Lord Brynden sat, white weirwood
flecked with red, dead branches woven through living roots. They placed it in the great cavern by the
abyss, where the black air echoed to the sound of running water far below. Of soft grey moss they made
his seat. Once he had been lowered into place, they covered him with warm furs.
There he sat, listening to the hoarse whispers of his teacher. Never fear the darkness, Bran.
The lords words were accompanied by a faint rustling of wood and leaf, a slight twisting of his head.
The strongest trees are rooted in the dark places of the earth. Darkness will be your cloak, your shield,
your mothers milk. Darkness will make you strong.
The moon was a crescent, thin and sharp as the blade of a knife. Snowflakes drifted down
soundlessly to cloak the soldier pines and sentinels in white. The drifts grew so deep that they covered
the entrance to the caves, leaving a white wall that Summer had to dig through whenever he went
outside to join his pack and hunt. Bran did not oft range with them in those days, but some nights he
watched them from above.

Flying was even better than climbing.
Slipping into Summers skin had become as easy for him as slipping on a pair of breeches once
had been, before his back was broken. Changing his own skin for a ravens night-black feathers had been
harder, but not as hard as he had feared, not with these ravens. A wild stallion will buck and kick when
a man tries to mount him, and try to bite the hand that slips the bit between his teeth, Lord Brynden
said, but a horse that has known one rider will accept another. Young or old, these birds have all been
ridden. Choose one now, and fly.
He chose one bird, and then another, without success, but the third raven looked at him with
shrewd black eyes, tilted its head, and gave a quork, and quick as that he was not a boy looking at a
raven but a raven looking at a boy. The song of the river suddenly grew louder, the torches burned a
little brighter than before, and the air was full of strange smells. When he tried to speak it came out in a
scream, and his first flight ended when he crashed into a wall and ended back inside his own broken
body. The raven was unhurt. It flew to him and landed on his arm, and Bran stroked its feathers and
slipped inside of it again. Before long he was flying around the cavern, weaving through the long stone
teeth that hung down from the ceiling, even flapping out over the abyss and swooping down into its
cold black depths.
Then he realized he was not alone. Someone else was in the raven, he told Lord Brynden, once
he had returned to his own skin. Some girl. I felt her.
A woman, of those who sing the song of earth, his teacher said. Long dead, yet a part of her
remains, just as a part of you would remain in Summer if your boys flesh were to die upon the morrow.
A shadow on the soul. She will not harm you.
Do all the birds have singers in them?
All, Lord Brynden said. It was the singers who taught the First Men to send messages by
raven  but in those days, the birds would speak the words. The trees remember, but men forget, and
so now they write the messages on parchment and tie them round the feet of birds who have never
shared their skin.
Old Nan had told him the same story once, Bran remembered, but when he asked Robb if it was
true, his brother laughed and asked him if he believed in grumkins too. He wished Robb were with them
now. Id tell him I could fly, but he wouldnt believe, so Id have to show him. I bet that he could learn to
fly too, him and Arya and Sansa, even baby Rickon and Jon Snow. We could all be ravens and live in
Maester Luwins rookery.
That was just another silly dream, though. Some days Bran wondered if all of this wasnt just
some dream. Maybe he had fallen asleep out in the snows and dreamed himself a safe, warm place. You
have to wake, he would tell himself, you have to wake right now, or youll go dreaming into death. Once
or twice he pinched his arm with his fingers, really hard, but the only thing that did was make his arm
hurt. In the beginning he had tried to count the days by making note of when he woke and slept, but

down here sleeping and waking had a way of melting into one another. Dreams became lessons, lessons
became dreams, things happened all at once or not at all. Had he done that or only dreamed it?
Only one man in a thousand is born a skinchanger, Lord Brynden said one day, after Bran had
learned to fly, and only one skinchanger in a thousand can be a greenseer.
I thought the greenseers were the wizards of the children, Bran said. The singers, I mean.
In a sense. Those you call the children of the forest have eyes as golden as the sun, but once in
a great while one is born amongst them with eyes as red as blood, or green as the moss on a tree in the
heart of the forest. By these signs do the gods mark those they have chosen to receive the gift. The
chosen ones are not robust, and their quick years upon the earth are few, for every song must have its
balance. But once inside the wood they linger long indeed. A thousand eyes, a hundred skins, wisdom
deep as the roots of ancient trees. Greenseers.
Bran did not understand, so he asked the Reeds. Do you like to read books, Bran? Jojen asked
him.
Some books. I like the fighting stories. My sister Sansa likes the kissing stories, but those are
stupid.
A reader lives a thousand lives before he dies, said Jojen. The man who never reads lives only
one. The singers of the forest had no books. No ink, no parchment, no written language. Instead they
had the trees, and the weirwoods above all. When they died, they went into the wood, into leaf and
limb and root, and the trees remembered. All their songs and spells, their histories and prayers,
everything they knew about this world. Maesters will tell you that the weirwoods are sacred to the old
gods. The singers believe they are the old gods. When singers die they become part of that godhood.
Brans eyes widened. Theyre going to kill me?
No, Meera said. Jojen, youre scaring him.
He is not the one who needs to be afraid.
The moon was fat and full. Summer prowled through the silent woods, a long grey shadow that
grew more gaunt with every hunt, for living game could not be found. The ward upon the cave mouth
still held; the dead men could not enter. The snows had buried most of them again, but they were still
there, hidden, frozen, waiting. Other dead things came to join them, things that had once been men and
women, even children. Dead ravens sat on bare brown branches, wings crusted with ice. A snow bear
crashed through the brush, huge and skeletal, half its head sloughed away to reveal the skull beneath.
Summer and his pack fell upon it and tore it into pieces. Afterward they gorged, though the meat was
rotted and half-frozen, and moved even as they ate it.
Under the hill they still had food to eat. A hundred kinds of mushrooms grew down here. Blind
white fish swam in the black river, but they tasted just as good as fish with eyes once you cooked them

up. They had cheese and milk from the goats that shared the caves with the singers, even some oats and
barleycorn and dried fruit laid by during the long summer. And almost every day they ate blood stew,
thickened with barley and onions and chunks of meat. Jojen thought it might be squirrel meat, and
Meera said that it was rat. Bran did not care. It was meat and it was good. The stewing made it tender.
The caves were timeless, vast, silent. They were home to more than three score living singers
and the bones of thousands dead, and extended far below the hollow hill. Men should not go
wandering in this place, Leaf warned them. The river you hear is swift and black, and flows down and
down to a sunless sea. And there are passages that go even deeper, bottomless pits and sudden shafts,
forgotten ways that lead to the very center of the earth. Even my people have not explored them all,
and we have lived here for a thousand thousand of your man-years.
Though the men of the Seven Kingdoms might call them the children of the forest, Leaf and her
people were far from childlike. Little wise men of the forest would have been closer. They were small
compared to men, as a wolf is smaller than a direwolf. That does not mean it is a pup. They had
nut-brown skin, dappled like a deers with paler spots, and large ears that could hear things that no man
could hear. Their eyes were big too, great golden cats eyes that could see down passages where a boys
eyes saw only blackness. Their hands had only three fingers and a thumb, with sharp black claws instead
of nails.
And they did sing. They sang in True Tongue, so Bran could not understand the words, but their
voices were as pure as winter air. Where are the rest of you? Bran asked Leaf, once.
Gone down into the earth, she answered. Into the stones, into the trees. Before the First
Men came all this land that you call Westeros was home to us, yet even in those days we were few. The
gods gave us long lives but not great numbers, lest we overrun the world as deer will overrun a wood
where there are no wolves to hunt them. That was in the dawn of days, when our sun was rising. Now it
sinks, and this is our long dwindling. The giants are almost gone as well, they who were our bane and
our brothers. The great lions of the western hills have been slain, the unicorns are all but gone, the
mammoths down to a few hundred. The direwolves will outlast us all, but their time will come as well. In
the world that men have made, there is no room for them, or us.
She seemed sad when she said it, and that made Bran sad as well. It was only later that he
thought, Men would not be sad. Men would be wroth. Men would hate and swear a bloody vengeance.
The singers sing sad songs, where men would fight and kill.
One day Meera and Jojen decided to go see the river, despite Leafs cautions. I want to come
too, Bran said.
Meera gave him a mournful look. The river was six hundred feet below, down steep slopes and
twisty passages, she explained, and the last part required climbing down a rope. Hodor could never
make the climb with you on his back. Im sorry, Bran.

Bran remembered a time when no one could climb as good as him, not even Robb or Jon. Part of
him wanted to shout at them for leaving him, and another part wanted to cry. He was almost a man
grown, though, so he said nothing. But after they were gone, he slipped inside Hodors skin and followed
them.
The big stableboy no longer fought him as he had the first time, back in the lake tower during
the storm. Like a dog who has had all the fight whipped out of him, Hodor would curl up and hide
whenever Bran reached out for him. His hiding place was somewhere deep within him, a pit where not
even Bran could touch him. No one wants to hurt you, Hodor, he said silently, to the child-man whose
flesh hed taken. I just want to be strong again for a while. Ill give it back, the way I always do.
No one ever knew when he was wearing Hodors skin. Bran only had to smile, do as he was told,
and mutter Hodor from time to time, and he could follow Meera and Jojen, grinning happily, without
anyone suspecting it was really him. He often tagged along, whether he was wanted or not. In the end,
the Reeds were glad he came. Jojen made it down the rope easily enough, but after Meera caught a
blind white fish with her frog spear and it was time to climb back up, his arms began to tremble and he
could not make it to the top, so they had to tie the rope around him and let Hodor haul him up.
Hodor, he grunted every time he gave a pull. Hodor, hodor, hodor.
The moon was a crescent, thin and sharp as the blade of a knife. Summer dug up a severed arm,
black and covered with hoarfrost, its fingers opening and closing as it pulled itself across the frozen
snow. There was still enough meat on it to fill his empty belly, and after that was done he cracked the
arm bones for the marrow. Only then did the arm remember it was dead.
Bran ate with Summer and his pack, as a wolf. As a raven he flew with the murder, circling the
hill at sunset, watching for foes, feeling the icy touch of the air. As Hodor he explored the caves. He
found chambers full of bones, shafts that plunged deep into the earth, a place where the skeletons of
gigantic bats hung upside down from the ceiling. He even crossed the slender stone bridge that arched
over the abyss and discovered more passages and chambers on the far side. One was full of singers,
enthroned like Brynden in nests of weirwood roots that wove under and through and around their
bodies. Most of them looked dead to him, but as he crossed in front of them their eyes would open and
follow the light of his torch, and one of them opened and closed a wrinkled mouth as if he were trying to
speak. Hodor, Bran said to him, and he felt the real Hodor stir down in his pit.
Seated on his throne of roots in the great cavern, half-corpse and half-tree, Lord Brynden
seemed less a man than some ghastly statue made of twisted wood, old bone, and rotted wool. The only
thing that looked alive in the pale ruin that was his face was his one red eye, burning like the last coal in
a dead fire, surrounded by twisted roots and tatters of leathery white skin hanging off a yellowed skull.
The sight of him still frightened Branthe weirwood roots snaking in and out of his withered
flesh, the mushrooms sprouting from his cheeks, the white wooden worm that grew from the socket
where one eye had been. He liked it better when the torches were put out. In the dark he could pretend
that it was the three-eyed crow who whispered to him and not some grisly talking corpse.

One day I will be like him. The thought filled Bran with dread. Bad enough that he was broken,
with his useless legs. Was he doomed to lose the rest too, to spend all of his years with a weirwood
growing in him and through him? Lord Brynden drew his life from the tree, Leaf told them. He did not
eat, he did not drink. He slept, he dreamed, he watched. I was going to be a knight, Bran remembered. I
used to run and climb and fight. It seemed a thousand years ago.
What was he now? Only Bran the broken boy, Brandon of House Stark, prince of a lost kingdom,
lord of a burned castle, heir to ruins. He had thought the three-eyed crow would be a sorcerer, a wise
old wizard who could fix his legs, but that was some stupid childs dream, he realized now. I am too old
for such fancies, he told himself. A thousand eyes, a hundred skins, wisdom deep as the roots of ancient
trees. That was as good as being a knight. Almost as good, anyway.
The moon was a black hole in the sky. Outside the cave the world went on. Outside the cave the
sun rose and set, the moon turned, the cold winds howled. Under the hill, Jojen Reed grew ever more
sullen and solitary, to his sisters distress. She would often sit with Bran beside their little fire, talking of
everything and nothing, petting Summer where he slept between them, whilst her brother wandered
the caverns by himself. Jojen had even taken to climbing up to the caves mouth when the day was
bright. He would stand there for hours, looking out over the forest, wrapped in furs yet shivering all the
same.
He wants to go home, Meera told Bran. He will not even try and fight his fate. He says the
greendreams do not lie.
Hes being brave, said Bran. The only time a man can be brave is when he is afraid, his father
had told him once, long ago, on the day they found the direwolf pups in the summer snows. He still
remembered.
Hes being stupid, Meera said. Id hoped that when we found your three-eyed crow  now I
wonder why we ever came.
For me, Bran thought. His greendreams, he said. His greendreams. Meeras voice was bitter.
Hodor, said Hodor.
Meera began to cry.
Bran hated being crippled then. Dont cry, he said. He wanted to put his arms around her, hold
her tight the way his mother used to hold him back at Winterfell when hed hurt himself. She was right
there, only a few feet from him, but so far out of reach it might have been a hundred leagues. To touch
her he would need to pull himself along the ground with his hands, dragging his legs behind him. The
floor was rough and uneven, and it would be slow going, full of scrapes and bumps. I could put on
Hodors skin, he thought. Hodor could hold her and pat her on the back. The thought made Bran feel
strange, but he was still thinking it when Meera bolted from the fire, back out into the darkness of the
tunnels. He heard her steps recede until there was nothing but the voices of the singers.

The moon was a crescent, thin and sharp as the blade of a knife. The days marched past, one
after the other, each shorter than the one before. The nights grew longer. No sunlight ever reached the
caves beneath the hill. No moonlight ever touched those stony halls. Even the stars were strangers
there. Those things belonged to the world above, where time ran in its iron circles, day to night to day to
night to day.
It is time, Lord Brynden said.
Something in his voice sent icy fingers running up Brans back. Time for what?
For the next step. For you to go beyond skinchanging and learn what it means to be a
greenseer.
The trees will teach him, said Leaf. She beckoned, and another of the singers padded forward,
the white-haired one that Meera had named Snowy locks. She had a weirwood bowl in her hands,
carved with a dozen faces, like the ones the heart trees wore. Inside was a white paste, thick and heavy,
with dark red veins running through it. You must eat of this, said Leaf. She handed Bran a wooden
spoon.
The boy looked at the bowl uncertainly. What is it?
A paste of weirwood seeds.
Something about the look of it made Bran feel ill. The red veins were only weirwood sap, he
supposed, but in the torchlight they looked remarkably like blood. He dipped the spoon into the paste,
then hesitated. Will this make me a greenseer?
Your blood makes you a greenseer, said Lord Brynden. This will help awaken your gifts and
wed you to the trees.
Bran did want to be married to a tree  but who else would wed a broken boy like him? A
thousand eyes, a hundred skins, wisdom deep as the roots of ancient trees. A greenseer.
He ate.
It had a bitter taste, though not so bitter as acorn paste. The first spoonful was the hardest to
get down. He almost retched it right back up. The second tasted better. The third was almost sweet. The
rest he spooned up eagerly. Why had he thought that it was bitter? It tasted of honey, of new-fallen
snow, of pepper and cinnamon and the last kiss his mother ever gave him. The empty bowl slipped from
his fingers and clattered on the cavern floor. I dont feel any different. What happens next?
Leaf touched his hand. The trees will teach you. The trees remember. He raised a hand, and
the other singers began to move about the cavern, extinguishing the torches one by one. The darkness
thickened and crept toward them.

Close your eyes, said the three-eyed crow. Slip your skin, as you do when you join with
Summer. But this time, go into the roots instead. Follow them up through the earth, to the trees upon
the hill, and tell me what you see.
Bran closed his eyes and slipped free of his skin. Into the roots, he thought. Into the weirwood.
Become the tree. For an instant he could see the cavern in its black mantle, could hear the river rushing
by below.
Then all at once he was back home again.
Lord Eddard Stark sat upon a rock beside the deep black pool in the gods wood, the pale roots of
the heart tree twisting around him like an old mans gnarled arms. The greatsword Ice lay across Lord
Eddards lap, and he was cleaning the blade with an oilcloth.
Winterfell, Bran whispered.
His father looked up. Whos there? he asked, turning   and Bran, frightened, pulled away.
His father and the black pool and the godswood faded and were gone and he was back in the cavern,
the pale thick roots of his weirwood throne cradling his limbs as a mother does a child. A torch flared to
life before him.
Tell us what you saw. From far away Leaf looked almost a girl, no older than Bran or one of his
sisters, but close at hand she seemed far older. She claimed to have seen two hundred years.
Brans throat was very dry. He swallowed. Winterfell. I was back in Winterfell. I saw my father.
Hes not dead, hes not, I saw him, hes back at Winterfell, hes still alive.
No, said Leaf. He is gone, boy. Do not seek to call him back from death.
I saw him. Bran could feel rough wood pressing against one cheek. He was cleaning Ice.
You saw what you wished to see. Your heart yearns for your father and your home, so that is
what you saw.
A man must know how to look before he can hope to see, said Lord Brynden. Those were
shadows of days past that you saw, Bran. You were looking through the eyes of the heart tree in your
godswood. Time is different for a tree than for a man. Sun and soil and water, these are the things a
weirwood understands, not days and years and centuries. For men, time is a river. We are trapped in its
flow, hurtling from past to present, always in the same direction. The lives of trees are different. They
root and grow and die in one place, and that river does not move them. The oak is the acorn, the acorn
is the oak. And the weirwood  a thousand human years are a moment to a weirwood, and through
such gates you and I may gaze into the past.
But, said Bran, he heard me.

He heard a whisper on the wind, a rustling amongst the leaves. You cannot speak to him, try as
you might. I know. I have my own ghosts, Bran. A brother that I loved, a brother that I hated, a woman I
desired. Through the trees, I see them still, but no word of mine has ever reached them. The past
remains the past. We can learn from it, but we cannot change it.
Will I see my father again?
Once you have mastered your gifts, you may look where you will and see what the trees have
seen, be it yesterday or last year or a thousand ages past. Men live their lives trapped in an eternal
present, between the mists of memory and the sea of shadow that is all we know of the days to come.
Certain moths live their whole lives in a day, yet to them that little span of time must seem as long as
years and decades do to us. An oak may live three hundred years, a redwood tree three thousand. A
weirwood will live forever if left undisturbed. To them seasons pass in the flutter of a moths wing, and
past, present, and future are one. Nor will your sight be limited to your godswood. The singers carved
eyes into their heart trees to awaken them, and those are the first eyes a new greenseer learns to use 
but in time you will see well beyond the trees themselves.
When? Bran wanted to know. In a year, or three, or ten. That I have not glimpsed. It will
come in time, I promise you. But I am tired now, and the trees are calling me. We will resume on the
morrow.
Hodor carried Bran back to his chamber, muttering Hodor in a low voice as Leaf went before
them with a torch. He had hoped that Meera and Jojen would be there, so he could tell them what he
had seen, but their snug alcove in the rock was cold and empty. Hodor eased Bran down onto his bed,
covered him with furs, and made a fire for them. A thousand eyes, a hundred skins, wisdom deep as the
roots of ancient trees.
Watching the flames, Bran decided he would stay awake till Meera came back. Jojen would be
unhappy, he knew, but Meera would be glad for him, He did not remember closing his eyes.
 but then somehow he was back at Winterfell again, in the gods-wood looking down upon his
father. Lord Eddard seemed much younger this time. His hair was brown, with no hint of grey in it, his
head bowed.  let them grow up close as brothers, with only love between them, he prayed, and let
my lady wife find it in her heart to forgive 
Father. Brans voice was a whisper in the wind, a rustle in the leaves. Father, its me. Its
Bran. Brandon.
Eddard Stark lifted his head and looked long at the weirwood, frowning, but he did not speak.
He cannot see me, Bran realized, despairing. He wanted to reach out and touch him, but all that he could
do was watch and listen. I am in the tree. I am inside the heart tree, looking out of its red eyes, but the
weirwood cannot talk, so I cant.
Eddard Stark resumed his prayer. Bran felt his eyes fill up with tears. But were they his own
tears, or the weirwoods? If I cry, will the tree begin to weep?

The rest of his fathers words were drowned out by a sudden clatter of wood on wood. Eddard
Stark dissolved, like mist in a morning sun. Now two children danced across the godswood, hooting at
one another as they dueled with broken branches. The girl was the older and taller of the two. Arya!
Bran thought eagerly, as he watched her leap up onto a rock and cut at the boy. But that couldnt be
right. If the girl was Arya, the boy was Bran himself, and he had never worn his hair so long. And Arya
never beat me playing swords, the way that girl is beating him. She slashed the boy across his thigh, so
hard that his leg went out from under him and he fell into the pool and began to splash and shout. You
be quiet, stupid, the girl said, tossing her own branch aside. Its just water. Do you want Old Nan to
hear and run tell Father? She knelt and pulled her brother from the pool, but before she got him out
again, the two of them were gone.
After that the glimpses came faster and faster, till Bran was feeling lost and dizzy. He saw no
more of his father, nor the girl who looked like Arya, but a woman heavy with child emerged naked and
dripping from the black pool, knelt before the tree, and begged the old gods for a son who would
avenge her. Then there came a brown-haired girl slender as a spear who stood on the tips of her toes to
kiss the lips of a young knight as tall as Hodor. A dark-eyed youth, pale and fierce, sliced three branches
off the weirwood and shaped them into arrows. The tree itself was shrinking, growing smaller with each
vision, whilst the lesser trees dwindled into saplings and vanished, only to be replaced by other trees
that would dwindle and vanish in their turn. And now the lords Bran glimpsed were tall and hard, stern
men in fur and chain mail. Some wore faces he remembered from the statues in the crypts, but they
were gone before he could put a name to them.
Then, as he watched, a bearded man forced a captive down onto his knees before the heart
tree. A white-haired woman stepped toward them through a drift of dark red leaves, a bronze sickle in
her hand.
No, said Bran, no, dont, but they could not hear him, no more than his father had. The
woman grabbed the captive by the hair, hooked the sickle round his throat, and slashed. And through
the mist of centuries the broken boy could only watch as the mans feet drummed against the earth 
but as his life flowed out of him in a red tide, Brandon Stark could taste the blood.
JON
The sun had broken through near midday, after seven days of dark skies and snow flurries. Some
of the drifts were higher than a man, but the stewards had been shoveling all day and the paths were as
clean as they were like to get. Reflections glimmered off the Wall, every crack and crevice glittering pale
blue.
Seven hundred feet up, Jon Snow stood looking down upon the haunted forest. A north wind
swirled through the trees below, sending thin white plumes of snow crystals flying from the highest

branches, like icy banners. Elsewise nothing moved. Not a sign of life. That was not entirely reassuring. It
was not the living that he feared. Even so 
The sun is out. The snow has stopped. It may be a moons turn before we have another chance as
good. It may be a season. Have Emmett assemble his recruits, he told Dolorous Edd. Well want an
escort. Ten rangers, armed with dragonglass. I want them ready to leave within the hour.
Aye, mlord. And to command?
That would be me.
Edds mouth turned down even more than usual. Some might think it better if the lord
commander stayed safe and warm south of the Wall. Not that Id say such myself, but some might.
Jon smiled. Some had best not say so in my presence.
A sudden gust of wind set Edds cloak to flapping noisily. Best go down, mlord. This winds like
to push us off the Wall, and I never did learn the knack of flying.
They rode the winch lift back to the ground. The wind was gusting, cold as the breath of the ice
dragon in the tales Old Nan had told when Jon was a boy. The heavy cage was swaying. From time to
time it scraped against the Wall, starting small crystalline showers of ice that sparkled in the sunlight as
they fell, like shards of broken glass.
Glass, Jon mused, might be of use here. Castle Black needs its own glass gardens, like the ones at
Winterfell. We could grow vegetables even in the deep of winter. The best glass came from Myr, but a
good clear pane was worth its weight in spice, and green and yellow glass would not work as well. What
we need is gold. With enough coin, we could buy prentice glass-blowers and glaziers in Myr, bring them
north, offer them their freedom for teaching their art to some of our recruits. That would be the way to
go about it. If we had the gold. Which we do not.
At the base of the Wall he found Ghost rolling in a snowbank. The big white direwolf seemed to
love fresh snow. When he saw Jon he bounded back onto his feet and shook himself off. Dolorous Edd
said, Hes going with you?
He is.
A clever wolf, him. And me?
Youre not.
A clever lord, you. Ghosts the better choice. I dont have the teeth for biting wildlings
anymore.
If the gods are good, we wont encounter any wildlings. Ill want the grey gelding.

Word spread fast at Castle Black. Edd was still saddling the grey when Bowen Marsh stomped
across the yard to confront Jon at the stables. My lord, I wish you would reconsider. The new men can
take their vows in the sept as easily.
The sept is home to the new gods. The old gods live in the wood, and those who honor them
say their words amongst the weirwoods. You know that as well as I.
Satin comes from Oldtown, and Arron and Emrick from the wester-lands. The old gods are not
their gods.
I do not tell men which god to worship. They were free to choose the Seven or the red
womans Lord of Light. They chose the trees instead, with all the peril that entails.
The Weeping Man may still be out there, watching.
The grove is no more than two hours ride, even with the snow. We should be back by
midnight.
Too long. This is not wise.
Unwise, said Jon, but necessary. These men are about to pledge their lives to the Nights
Watch, joining a brotherhood that stretches back in an unbroken line for thousands of years. The words
matter, and so do these traditions. They bind us all together, highborn and low, young and old, base and
noble. They make us brothers. He clapped Marsh on his shoulder. I promise you, we shall return.
Aye, my lord, said the Lord Steward, but will it be as living men or heads on spears with your
eyes scooped out? You will be returning through the black of night. The snowdrifts are waist deep in
places. I see that you are taking seasoned men with you, that is good, but Black Jack Bulwer knew these
woods as well. Even Benjen Stark, your own uncle, he
I have something they did not. Jon turned his head and whistled. Ghost. To me. The direwolf
shook the snow from his back and trotted to Jons side. The rangers parted to let him through, though
one mare whinnied and shied away till Rory gave her reins a sharp tug. The Wall is yours, Lord Bowen.
He took his horse by the bridle and walked him to the gate and the icy tunnel that snaked beneath the
Wall.
Beyond the ice, the trees stood tall and silent, huddled in the thick white cloaks. Ghost stalked
beside Jons horse as the rangers and recruits formed up, then stopped and sniffed, his breath frosting
in the air. What is it? Jon asked. Is someone there? The woods were empty as far as he could see,
but that was not very far.
Ghost bounded toward the trees, slipped between two white-cloaked pines, and vanished in a
cloud of snow. He wants to hunt, but what? Jon did not fear for the direwolf so much as for any wildlings
he might encounter. A white wolf in a white wood, silent as a shadow. They will never know hes coming.
He knew better than to go chasing him. Ghost would return when he wanted to and not before. Jon put

his heels into his horse. His men fell in around them, the hooves of their garrons breaking through the
icy crust to the softer snow beneath. Into the woods they went, at a steady walking pace, as the Wall
dwindled behind them.
The soldier pines and sentinels wore thick white coats, and icicles draped the bare brown limbs
of the broadleafs. Jon sent Tom Barleycorn ahead to scout for them, though the way to the white grove
was oft trod and familiar. Big Liddle and Luke of Longtown slipped into the brush to east and west. They
would flank the column to give warning of any approach. All were seasoned rangers, armed with
obsidian as well as steel, warhorns slung across their saddles should they need to summon help.
The others were good men too. Good men in a fight, at least, and loyal to their brothers. Jon
could not speak for what they might have been before they reached the Wall, but he did not doubt that
most had pasts as black as their cloaks. Up here, they were the sort of men he wanted at his back. Their
hoods were raised against the biting wind, and some had scarves wrapped about their faces, hiding their
features. Jon knew them, though. Every name was graven on his heart. They were his men, his brothers.
Six more rode with thema mix of young and old, large and small, seasoned and raw. Six to say
the words. Horse had been born and raised in Moles Town, Arron and Emrick came from Fair Isle, Satin
from the brothels of Oldtown at the other end of Westeros. All of them were boys. Leathers and Jax
were older men, well past forty, sons of the haunted forest, with sons and grandsons of their own. They
had been two of the sixty-three wildlings who had followed Jon Snow back to the Wall the day he made
his appeal, so far the only two to decide they wanted a black cloak. Iron Emmett said they all were
ready, or as ready as they were ever going to be. He and Jon and Bowen Marsh had weighed each man
in turn and assigned him to an order: Leathers, Jax, and Emrick to the rangers, Horse to the builders,
Arron and Satin to the stewards. The time had come for them to take their vows.
Iron Emmett rode at the head of the column, mounted on the ugliest horse Jon had ever seen, a
shaggy beast that looked to be all hair and hooves. Talk is there was some trouble at Harlots Tower
last night, the master-at-arms said.
Hardins Tower. Of the sixty-three who had come back with him from Moles Town, nineteen
had been women and girls. Jon had housed them in the same abandoned tower where he had once
slept when he had been new to the Wall. Twelve were spearwives, more than capable of defending both
themselves and the younger girls from the unwanted attentions of black brothers. It was some of the
men theyd turned away whod given Hardins Tower its new, inflammatory name. Jon was not about to
condone the mockery. Three drunken fools mistook Hardins for a brothel, thats all. They are in the ice
cells now, contemplating their mistake.
Iron Emmett grimaced. Men are men, vows are words, and words are wind. You should put
guards around the women.
And who will guard the guards? You know nothing, Jon Snow. He had learned, though, and
Ygritte had been his teacher. If he could not hold to his own vows, how could he expect more of his
brothers? But there were dangers in trifling with wildling women. A man can own a woman, and a man

can own a knife, Ygritte had told him once, but no man can own both. Bowen Marsh had not been all
wrong. Hardins Tower was tinder waiting for a spark. I mean to open three more castles, Jon said.
Deep Lake, Sable Hall, and the Long Barrow. All garrisoned with free folk, under the command of our
own officers. The Long Barrow will be all women, aside from the commander and chief steward. There
would be some mingling, he did not doubt, but the distances were great enough to make that difficult,
at least.
And what poor fool will get that choice command?
I am riding beside him.
The look of mingled horror and delight that passed across Iron Emmetts face was worth more
than a sack of gold. What have I done to make you hate me so, my lord?
Jon laughed. Have no fear, you wont be alone. I mean to give you Dolorous Edd as your second
and your steward.
The spearwives will be so happy. You might do well to bestow a castle on the Magnar.
Jons smile died. I might if I could trust him. Sigorn blames me for his fathers death, I fear.
Worse, he was bred and trained to give orders, not to take them. Do not confuse the Thenns with free
folk. Magnar means lord in the Old Tongue, I am told, but Styr was closer to a god to his people, and his
son is cut from the same skin. I do not require men to kneel, but they do need to obey.
Aye, mlord, but you had best do something with the Magnar. Youll have trouble with the
Thenns if you ignore them.
Trouble is the lord commanders lot, Jon might have said. His visit to Moles Town was giving him
plenty, as it happened, and the women were the least of it. Halleck was proving to be just as truculent as
he had feared, and there were some amongst the black brothers whose hatred of the free folk was bone
deep. One of Hallecks followers had already cut off a build-ers ear in the yard, and like as not that was
just a taste of the bloodshed to come. He had to get the old forts open soon, so Harmas brother could
be sent off to garrison Deep Lake or Sable Hall. Just now, though, neither of those was fit for human
habitation, and Othell Yarwyck and his builders were still off trying to restore the Nightfort. There were
nights when Jon Snow wondered if he had not made a grievous mistake by preventing Stannis from
marching all the wildlings off to be slaughtered. I know nothing, Ygritte, he thought, and perhaps I never
will.
Half a mile from the grove, long red shafts of autumn sunlight were slanting down between the
branches of the leafless trees, staining the snowdrifts pink. The riders crossed a frozen stream, between
two jagged rocks armored in ice, then followed a twisting game trail to the northeast. Whenever the
wind kicked up, sprays of loose snow filled the air and stung their eyes. Jon pulled his scarf up over his
mouth and nose and raised the hood on his cloak. Not far now, he told the men. No one replied.

Jon smelled Tom Barleycorn before he saw him. Or was it Ghost who smelled him? Of late, Jon
Snow sometimes felt as if he and the direwolf were one, even awake. The great white wolf appeared
first, shaking off the snow. A few moments later Tom was there. Wildlings, he told Jon, softly. In the
grove.
Jon brought the riders to a halt. How many?
I counted nine. No guards. Some dead, might be, or sleeping. Most look to be women. One
child, but theres a giant too. Just the one that I saw. They got a fire burning, smoke drifting through the
trees. Fools.
Nine, and I have seven-and-ten. Four of his were green boys, though, and none were giants.
Jon was not of a mind to fall back to the Wall, however. If the wildlings are still alive, it may be
we can bring them in. And if they are dead, well  a corpse or two could be of use. Well continue on
foot, he said, dropping lightly to the frozen ground. The snow was ankle deep. Rory, Pate, stay with
the horses. He might have given that duty to the recruits, but they would need to be blooded soon
enough. This was as good a time as any. Spread out and form a crescent. I want to close in on the grove
from three sides. Keep the men to your right and left in sight, so the gaps do not widen. The snow
should muffle our steps. Less chance of blood if we take them unawares.
Night was falling fast. The shafts of sunlight had vanished when the last thin slice of the sun was
swallowed beneath the western woods. The pink snow drifts were going white again, the color leaching
out of them as the world darkened. The evening sky had turned the faded grey of an old cloak that had
been washed too many times, and the first shy stars were coming out.
Ahead he glimpsed a pale white trunk that could only be a weirwood, crowned with a head of
dark red leaves. Jon Snow reached back and pulled Longclaw from his sheath. He looked to right and
left, gave Satin and Horse a nod, watched them pass it on to the men beyond. They rushed the grove
together, kicking through drifts of old snow with no sound but their breathing. Ghost ran with them, a
white shadow at Jons side.
The weirwoods rose in a circle around the edges of the clearing. There were nine, all roughly of
the same age and size. Each one had a face carved into it, and no two faces were alike. Some were
smiling, some were screaming, some were shouting at him. In the deepening glow their eyes looked
black, but in daylight they would be blood-red, Jon knew. Eyes like Ghosts.
The fire in the center of the grove was a small sad thing, ashes and embers and a few broken
branches burning slow and smoky. Even then, it had more life than the wildlings huddled near it. Only
one of them reacted when Jon stepped from the brush. That was the child, who began to wail, clutching
at his mothers ragged cloak. The woman raised her eyes and gasped. By then the grove was ringed by
rangers, sliding past the bone-white trees, steel glinting in black-gloved hands, poised for slaughter.
The giant was the last to notice them. He had been asleep, curled up by the fire, but something
woke himthe childs cry, the sound of snow crunching beneath black boots, a sudden indrawn breath.

When he stirred it was as if a boulder had come to life. He heaved himself into a sitting position with a
snort, pawing at his eyes with hands as big as hams to rub the sleep away  until he saw Iron Emmett,
his sword shining in his hand. Roaring, he came leaping to his feet, and one of those huge hands closed
around a maul and jerked it up.
Ghost showed his teeth in answer. Jon grabbed the wolf by the scruff of the neck. We want no
battle here. His men could bring the giant down, he knew, but not without cost. Once blood was shed,
the wildlings would join the fray. Most or all would die here, and some of his own brothers too. This is a
holy place. Yield, and we
The giant bellowed again, a sound that shook the leaves in the trees, and slammed his maul
against the ground. The shaft of it was six feet of gnarled oak, the head a stone as big as a loaf of bread.
The impact made the ground shake. Some of the other wildlings went scrambling for their own
weapons.
Jon Snow was about to reach for Longclaw when Leathers spoke, from the far side of the grove.
His words sounded gruff and guttural, but Jon heard the music in it and recognized the Old Tongue.
Leathers spoke for a long while. When he was done, the giant answered. It sounded like growling,
interspersed with grunts, and Jon could not understand a word of it. But Leathers pointed at the trees
and said something else, and the giant pointed at the trees, ground his teeth, and dropped his maul.
Its done, said Leathers. They want no fight.
Well done. What did you tell him?
That they were our gods too. That we came to pray.
We shall. Put away your steel, all of you. We will have no blood shed here tonight.
Nine, Tom Barleycorn had said, and nine there were, but two were dead and one so weak he
might have died by morning. The six who remained included a mother and child, two old men, a
wounded Thenn in battered bronze, and one of the Hornfoot folk, his bare feet so badly frostbitten that
Jon knew at a glance he would never walk again. Most had been strangers to one another when they
came to the grove, he learned subsequently; when Stannis broke Mance Rayders host, they had fled
into the woods to escape the carnage, wandered for a time, lost friends and kin to cold and starvation,
and finally washed up here, too weak and weary to go on. The gods are here, one of the old men said.
This was as good a place to die as any.
The Wall is only a few hours south of here, said Jon. Why not seek shelter there? Others
yielded. Even Mance.
The wildlings exchanged looks. Finally one said, We heard stories. The crows burned all them
that yielded.
Even Mance hisself, the woman added.

Melisandre, Jon thought, you and your red god have much and more to answer for. All those
who wish are welcome to return with us. There is food and shelter at Castle Black, and the Wall to keep
you safe from the things that haunt these woods. You have my word, no one will burn.
A crows word, the woman said, hugging her child close, but whos to say that you can keep
it? Who are you?
Lord Commander of the Nights Watch, and a son of Eddard Stark of Winterfell. Jon turned to
Tom Barleycorn. Have Rory and Pate bring up the horses. I do not mean to stay here one moment
longer than we must.
As you say, mlord.
One last thing remained before they could depart: the thing that they had come for. Iron
Emmett called forth his charges, and as the rest of the company watched from a respectful distance,
they knelt before the weir-woods. The last light of day was gone by then; the only light came from the
stars above and the faint red glow of the dying fire in the center of the grove.
With their black hoods and thick black cowls, the six might have been carved from shadow. Their
voices rose together, small against the vastness of the night. Night gathers, and now my watch begins,
they said, as thousands had said before them. Satins voice was sweet as song, Horses hoarse and
halting, Arrons a nervous squeak. It shall not end until my death.
May those deaths be long in coming. Jon Snow sank to one knee in the snow. Gods of my
fathers, protect these men. And Arya too, my little sister, wherever she might be. I pray you, let Mance
find her and bring her safe to me.
I shall take no wife, hold no lands, father no children, the recruits promised, in voices that
echoed back through years and centuries. I shall wear no crowns and win no glory. I shall live and die at
my post.
Gods of the wood, grant me the strength to do the same, Jon Snow prayed silently. Give me the
wisdom to know what must be done and the courage to do it.
I am the sword in the darkness, said the six, and it seemed to Jon as though their voices were
changing, growing stronger, more certain. I am the watcher on the walls. I am the fire that burns
against the cold, the light that brings the dawn, the horn that wakes the sleepers, the shield that guards
the realms of men.
The shield that guards the realms of men. Ghost nuzzled up against his shoulder, and Jon draped
an arm around him. He could smell Horses unwashed breeches, the sweet scent Satin combed into his
beard, the rank sharp smell of fear, the giants overpowering musk. He could hear the beating of his own
heart. When he looked across the grove at the woman with her child, the two greybeards, the Hornfoot
man with his maimed feet, all he saw was men.

I pledge my life and honor to the Nights Watch, for this night and all the nights to come.
Jon Snow was the first onto his feet. Rise now as men of the Nights Watch. He gave Horse a
hand to pull him up.
The wind was rising. It was time to go.
The journey back took much longer than the journey to the grove. The giants pace was a
ponderous one, despite the length and girth of those legs, and he was forever stopping to knock snow
off low-hanging limbs with his maul. The woman rode double with Rory, her son with Tom Barleycorn,
the old men with Horse and Satin. The Thenn was frightened of the horses, however, and preferred to
limp along despite his wounds. The Hornfoot man could not sit a saddle and had to be tied over the back
of a garron like a sack of grain; so too the pale-faced crone with the stick-thin limbs, whom they had not
been able to rouse.
They did the same with the two corpses, to the puzzlement of Iron Emmett. They will only slow
us, my lord, he said to Jon. We should chop them up and burn them.
No, said Jon. Bring them. I have a use for them.
They had no moon to guide them home, and only now and then a patch of stars. The world was
black and white and still. It was a long, slow, endless trek. The snow clung to their boots and breeches,
and the wind rattled the pines and made their cloaks snap and swirl. Jon glimpsed the red wanderer
above, watching them through the leafless branches of great trees as they made their way beneath. The
Thief, the free folk called it. The best time to steal a woman was when the Thief was in the Moonmaid,
Ygritte had always claimed. She never mentioned the best time to steal a giant. Or two dead men.
It was almost dawn before they saw the Wall again.
A sentrys horn greeted them as they approached, sounding from on high like the cry of some
huge, deep-throated bird, a single long blast that meant rangers returning. Big Liddle unslung his own
warhorn and gave answer. At the gate, they had to wait a few moments before Dolorous Edd Tollett
appeared to slide back the bolts and swing open the iron bars. When Edd caught sight of the ragged
band of wildlings, he pursed his lips and gave the giant a long look. Might need some butter to slide
that one through the tunnel, mlord. Shall I send someone to the larder?
Oh, I think hell fit. Unbuttered.
So he did  on hands and knees, crawling. A big boy, this one. Fourteen feet, at least. Even
bigger than Mag the Mighty. Mag had died beneath this very ice, locked in mortal struggle with Donal
Noye. A good man. The Watch has lost too many good men. Jon took Leathers aside. Take charge of
him. You speak his tongue. See that he is fed and find him a warm place by the fire. Stay with him. See
that no one provokes him.
Aye. Leathers hesitated. Mlord.

The living wildlings Jon sent off to have their wounds and frostbites tended. Some hot food and
warm clothes would restore most of them, he hoped, though the Hornfoot man was like to lose both
feet. The corpses he consigned to the ice cells.
Clydas had come and gone, Jon noted as he was hanging his cloak on the peg beside the door. A
letter had been left on the table in his solar. Eastwatch or the Shadow Tower, he assumed at first glance.
But the wax was gold, not black. The seal showed a stags head within a flaming heart. Stannis. Jon
cracked the hardened wax, flattened the roll of parchment, read. A maesters hand, but the kings
words.
Stannis had taken Deepwood Motte, and the mountain clans had joined him. Flint, Norrey, Wull,
Liddle, all.
And we had other help, unexpected but most welcome, from a daughter of Bear Island. Alysane
Mormont, whose men name her the She-Bear, hid fighters inside a gaggle of fishing sloops and took the
ironmen unawares where they lay off the strand. Greyjoys longships are burned or taken, her crews slain
or surrendered. The captains, knights, notable warriors, and others of high birth we shall ransom or
make other use of, the rest I mean to hang 
The Nights Watch was sworn to take no side in the quarrels and conflicts of the realm.
Nonetheless, Jon Snow could not help but feel a certain satisfaction. He read on.
 more northmen coming in as word spreads of our victory. Fisherfolk, freeriders, hillmen,
crofters from the deep of the wolfswood and villagers who fled their homes along the stony shore to
escape the ironmen, survivors from the battle outside the gates of Winterfell, men once sworn to the
Hornwoods, the Cerwyns, and the Tallharts. We are five thousand strong as I write, our numbers swelling
every day. And word has come to us that Roose Bolton moves toward Winterfell with all his power, there
to wed his bastard to your half sister. He must not be allowed to restore the castle to its former strength.
We march against him. Arnolf Karstark and Mors Umber will join us. I will save your sister if I can, and
find a better match for her than Ramsay Snow. You and your brothers must hold the Wall until I can
return.
It was signed, in a different hand,
Done in the Light of Lord, under the sign and seal of Stannis of House Baratheon, the First of His
Name, King of the Andals, the Rhoynar, and the First Men, Lord of the Seven Kingdoms, and Protector of
the Realm.
The moment Jon set the letter aside, the parchment curled up again, as if eager to protect its
secrets. He was not at all sure how he felt about what he had just read. Battles had been fought at
Winterfell before, but never one without a Stark on one side or the other. The castle is a shell, he said,
not Winterfell, but the ghost of Winterfell. It was painful just to think of it, much less say the words
aloud. And still 

He wondered how many men old Crowfood would bring to the fray, and how many swords
Arnolf Karstark would be able to conjure up. Half the Umbers would be across the field with
Whoresbane, fighting beneath the flayed man of the Dreadfort, and the greater part of the strength of
both houses had gone south with Robb, never to return. Even ruined, Winterfell itself would confer a
considerable advantage on whoever held it. Robert Baratheon would have seen that at once and moved
swiftly to secure the castle, with the forced marches and midnight rides for which he had been famous.
Would his brother be as bold?
Not likely. Stannis was a deliberate commander, and his host was a half-digested stew of
clansmen, southron knights, kings men and queens men, salted with a few northern lords. He should
move on Winterfell swiftly, or not at all, Jon thought. It was not his place to advise the king, but 
He glanced at the letter again. I will save your sister if I can. A surprisingly tender sentiment from
Stannis, though undercut by that final, brutal if I can and the addendum and find a better match for her
than Ramsay Snow. But what if Arya was not there to be saved? What if Lady Melisandres flames had
told it true? Could his sister truly have escaped such captors? How would she do that? Arya was always
quick and clever, but in the end shes just a little girl, and Roose Bolton is not the sort who would be
careless with a prize of such great worth.
What if Bolton never had his sister? This wedding could well be just some ruse to lure Stannis
into a trap. Eddard Stark had never had any reason to complain of the Lord of the Dreadfort, so far as
Jon knew, but even so he had never trusted him, with his whispery voice and his pale, pale eyes.
A grey girl on a dying horse, fleeing from her marriage. On the strength of those words he had
loosed Mance Rayder and six spearwives on the north. Young ones, and pretty, Mance had said. The
unburnt king supplied some names, and Dolorous Edd had done the rest, smuggling them from Moles
Town. It seemed like madness now. He might have done better to strike down Mance the moment he
revealed himself. Jon had a certain grudging admiration for the late King-Beyond-the-Wall, but the man
was an oathbreaker and a turncloak. He had even less trust in Melisandre. Yet somehow here he was,
pinning his hopes on them. All to save my sister. But the men of the Nights Watch have no sisters.
When Jon had been a boy at Winterfell, his hero had been the Young Dragon, the boy king who
had conquered Dorne at the age of fourteen. Despite his bastard birth, or perhaps because of it, Jon
Snow had dreamed of leading men to glory just as King Daeron had, of growing up to be a conqueror.
Now he was a man grown and the Wall was his, yet all he had were doubts. He could not even seem to
conquer those.
DAENERYS
The stench of the camp was so appalling it was all that Dany could do not to gag.

Ser Barristan wrinkled up his nose, and said, Your Grace should not be here, breathing these
black humors.
I am the blood of the dragon, Dany reminded him. Have you ever seen a dragon with the
flux? Viserys had oft claimed that Targaryens were untroubled by the pestilences that afflicted
common men, and so far as she could tell, it was true. She could remember being cold and hungry and
afraid, but never sick.
Even so, the old knight said, I would feel better if Your Grace would return to the city. The
many-colored brick walls of Meereen were half a mile back. The bloody flux has been the bane of every
army since the Dawn Age. Let us distribute the food, Your Grace.
On the morrow. I am here now. I want to see. She put her heels into her silver. The others
trotted after her. Jhogo rode before her, Aggo and Rakharo just behind, long Dothraki whips in hand to
keep away the sick and dying. Ser Barristan was at her right, mounted on a dapple grey. To her left was
Symon Stripeback of the Free Brothers and Marselen of the Mothers Men. Three score soldiers
followed close behind the captains, to protect the food wagons. Mounted men all, Dothraki and Brazen
Beasts and freedmen, they were united only by their distaste for this duty.
The Astapori stumbled after them in a ghastly procession that grew longer with every yard they
crossed. Some spoke tongues she did not understand. Others were beyond speaking. Many lifted their
hands to Dany, or knelt as her silver went by. Mother, they called to her, in the dialects of Astapor,
Lys, and Old Volantis, in guttural Dothraki and the liquid syllables of Qarth, even in the Common Tongue
of Westeros. Mother, please  mother, help my sister, she is sick  give me food for my little ones 
please, my old father  help him  help her  help me 
I have no more help to give, Dany thought, despairing. The Astapori had no place to go.
Thousands remained outside Meereens thick walls men and women and children, old men and little
girls and newborn babes. Many were sick, most were starved, and all were doomed to die. Daenerys
dare not open her gates to let them in. She had tried to do what she could for them. She had sent them
healers, Blue Graces and spell-singers and barber-surgeons, but some of those had sickened as well, and
none of their arts had slowed the galloping progression of the flux that had come on the pale mare.
Separating the healthy from the sick had proved impractical as well. Her Stalwart Shields had tried,
pulling husbands away from wives and children from their mothers, even as the Astapori wept and
kicked and pelted them with stones. A few days later, the sick were dead and the healthy ones were
sick. Dividing the one from the other had accomplished nothing.
Even feeding them had grown difficult. Every day she sent them what she could, but every day
there were more of them and less food to give them. It was growing harder to find drivers willing to
deliver the food as well. Too many of the men they had sent into the camp had been stricken by the flux
themselves. Others had been attacked on the way back to the city. Yesterday a wagon had been
overturned and two of her soldiers killed, so today the queen had determined that she would bring the
food herself. Every one of her advisors had argued fervently against it, from Reznak and the Shavepate

to Ser Barristan, but Daenerys would not be moved. I will not turn away from them, she said
stubbornly. A queen must know the sufferings of her people.
Suffering was the only thing they did not lack. There is scarcely a horse or mule left, though
many rode from Astapor, Marselen reported to her. Theyve eaten every one, Your Grace, along with
every rat and scavenger dog that they could catch. Now some have begun to eat their own dead.
Man must not eat the flesh of man, said Aggo.
It is known, agreed Rahkaro. They will be cursed.
Theyre past cursing, said Symon Stripeback.
Little children with swollen stomachs trailed after them, too weak or scared to beg. Gaunt men
with sunken eyes squatted amidst sand and stones, shitting out their lives in stinking streams of brown
and red. Many shat where they slept now, too feeble to crawl to the ditches shed commanded them to
dig. Two women fought over a charred bone. Nearby a boy of ten stood eating a rat. He ate one-handed,
the other clutching a sharpened stick lest anyone try to wrest away his prize. Unburied dead lay
everywhere. Dany saw one man sprawled in the dirt under a black cloak, but as she rode past his cloak
dissolved into a thousand flies. Skeletal women sat upon the ground clutching dying infants. Their eyes
followed her. Those who had the strength called out. Mother  please, Mother  bless you, Mother 
Bless me, Dany thought bitterly. Your city is gone to ash and bone, your people are dying all
around you. I have no shelter for you, no medicine, no hope. Only stale bread and wormy meat, hard
cheese, a little milk. Bless me, bless me.
What kind of mother has no milk to feed her children?
Too many dead, Aggo said. They should be burned.
Who will burn them? asked Ser Barristan. The bloody flux is everywhere. A hundred die each
night.
It is not good to touch the dead, said Jhogo.
This is known, Aggo and Rakharo said, together.
That may be so, said Dany, but this thing must be done, all the same. She thought a
moment. The Unsullied have no fear of corpses. I shall speak to Grey Worm.
Your Grace, said Ser Barristan, the Unsullied are your best fighters. We dare not loose this
plague amongst them. Let the Astapori bury their own dead.
They are too feeble, said Symon Stripeback.
Dany said, More food might make them stronger.

Symon shook his head. Food should not be wasted on the dying, Your Worship. We do not have
enough to feed the living.
He was not wrong, she knew, but that did not make the words any easier to hear. This is far
enough, the queen decided. Well feed them here. She raised a hand. Behind her the wagons
bumped to a halt, and her riders spread out around them, to keep the Astapori from rushing at the food.
No sooner had they stopped than the press began to thicken around them, as more and more of the
afflicted came limping and shambling toward the wagons. The riders cut them off. Wait your turn,
they shouted. No pushing. Back. Stay back. Bread for everyone. Wait your turn.
Dany could only sit and watch. Ser, she said to Barristan Selmy, is there no more we can do?
You have provisions.
Provisions for Your Graces soldiers. We may well need to withstand a long siege. The
Stormcrows and the Second Sons can harry the Yunkishmen, but they cannot hope to turn them. If Your
Grace would allow me to assemble an army 
If there must be a battle, I would sooner fight it from behind the walls of Meereen. Let the
Yunkaii try and storm my battlements. The queen surveyed the scene around her. If we were to share
our food equally 
 the Astapori would eat through their portion in days, and we would have that much less for
the siege.
Dany gazed across the camp, to the many-colored brick walls of Meereen. The air was thick with
flies and cries. The gods have sent this pestilence to humble me. So many dead  I will not have them
eating corpses. She beckoned Aggo closer. Ride to the gates and bring me Grey Worm and fifty of his
Unsullied.
Khaleesi. The blood of your blood obeys. Aggo touched his horse with his heels and galloped
off.
Ser Barristan watched with ill-concealed apprehension. You should not linger here overlong,
Your Grace. The Astapori are being fed, as you commanded. Theres no more we can do for the poor
wretches. We should repair back to the city.
Go if you wish, ser. I will not detain you. I will not detain any of you. Dany vaulted down from
the horse. I cannot heal them, but I can show them that their Mother cares.
Jhogo sucked in his breath. Khaleesi, no. The bell in his braid rang softly as he dismounted.
You must not get any closer. Do not let them touch you! Do not!
Dany walked right past him. There was an old man on the ground a few feet away, moaning and
staring up at the grey belly of the clouds. She knelt beside him, wrinkling her nose at the smell, and
pushed back his dirty grey hair to feel his brow. His flesh is on fire. I need water to bathe him. Seawater

will serve. Marselen, will you fetch some for me? I need oil as well, for the pyre. Who will help me burn
the dead?
By the time Aggo returned with Grey Worm and fifty of the Unsullied loping behind his horse,
Dany had shamed all of them into helping her. Symon Stripeback and his men were pulling the living
from the dead and stacking up the corpses, while Jhogo and Rakharo and their Dothraki helped those
who could still walk toward the shore to bathe and wash their clothes. Aggo stared at them as if they
had all gone mad, but Grey Worm knelt beside the queen and said, This one would be of help.
Before midday a dozen fires were burning. Columns of greasy black smoke rose up to stain a
merciless blue sky. Danys riding clothes were stained and sooty as she stepped back from the pyres.
Worship, Grey Worm said, this one and his brothers beg your leave to bathe in the salt sea when our
work here is done, that we might be purified according to the laws of our great goddess.
The queen had not known that the eunuchs had a goddess of their own. Who is this goddess?
One of the gods of Ghis?
Grey Worm looked troubled. The goddess is called by many names. She is the Lady of Spears,
the Bride of Battle, the Mother of Hosts, but her true name belongs only to these poor ones who have
burned their manhoods upon her altar. We may not speak of her to others. This one begs your
forgiveness.
As you wish. Yes, you may bathe if that is your desire. Thank you for your help.
These ones live to serve you.
When Daenerys returned to her pyramid, sore of limb and sick of heart, she found Missandei
reading some old scroll whilst Irri and Jhiqui argued about Rakharo. You are too skinny for him, Jhiqui
was saying. You are almost a boy. Rakharo does not bed with boys. This is known. Irri bristled back. It
is known that you are almost a cow. Rakharo does not bed with cows.
Rakharo is blood of my blood. His life belongs to me, not you, Dany told the two of them.
Rakharo had grown almost half a foot during his time away from Meereen and returned with arms and
legs thick with muscle and four bells in his hair. He towered over Aggo and Jhogo now, as her handmaids
had both noticed. Now be quiet. I need to bathe. She had never felt more soiled. Jhiqui, help me from
these clothes, then take them away and burn them. Irri, tell Qezza to find me something light and cool
to wear. The day was very hot.
A cool wind was blowing on her terrace. Dany sighed with pleasure as she slipped into the
waters of her pool. At her command, Missandei stripped off her clothes and climbed in after her. This
one heard the Astapori scratching at the walls last night, the little scribe said as she was washing Danys
back.
Irri and Jhiqui exchanged a look. No one was scratching, said Jhiqui. Scratching  how could
they scratch?

With their hands, said Missandei. The bricks are old and crumbling. They are trying to claw
their way into the city.
This would take them many years, said Irri. The walls are very thick. This is known.
It is known, agreed Jhiqui.
I dream of them as well. Dany took Missandeis hand. The camp is a good half-mile from the
city, my sweetling. No one was scratching at the walls.
Your Grace knows best, said Missandei. Shall I wash your hair? It is almost time. Reznak mo
Reznak and the Green Grace are coming to discuss
the wedding preparations. Dany sat up with a splash. I had almost forgotten. Perhaps I
wanted to forget. And after them, I am to dine with Hizdahr. She sighed. Irri, bring the green tokar,
the silk one fringed with Myrish lace.
That one is being repaired, Khaleesi. The lace was torn. The blue tokar has been cleaned.
Blue, then. They will be just as pleased.
She was only half-wrong. The priestess and the seneschal were happy to see her garbed in a
tokar, a proper Meereenese lady for once, but what they really wanted was to strip her bare. Daenerys
heard them out, incredulous. When they were done, she said, I have no wish to give offense, but I will
not present myself naked to Hizdahrs mother and sisters.
But, said Reznak mo Reznak, blinking, but you must, Your Worship. Before a marriage it is
traditional for the women of the mans house to examine the brides womb and, ah  her female parts.
To ascertain that they are well formed and, ah 
 fertile, finished Galazza Galare. An ancient ritual, Your Radiance. Three Graces shall be
present to witness the examination and say the proper prayers.
Yes, said Reznak, and afterward there is a special cake. A womens cake, baked only for
betrothals. Men are not allowed to taste it. I am told it is delicious. Magical.
And if my womb is withered and my female parts accursed, is there a special cake for that as
well? Hizdahr zo Loraq may inspect my womens parts after we are wed. Khal Drogo found no fault
with them, why should he? Let his mother and his sisters examine one another and share the special
cake. I shall not be eating it. Nor shall I wash the noble Hizdahrs noble feet.
Magnificence, you do not understand, protested Reznak. The washing of the feet is hallowed
by tradition. It signifies that you shall be your husbands handmaid. The wedding garb is fraught with
meaning too. The bride is dressed in dark red veils above a tokar of white silk, fringed with baby pearls.
The queen of the rabbits must not be wed without her floppy ears. All those pearls will make me
rattle when I walk.

The pearls symbolize fertility. The more pearls Your Worship wears, the more healthy children
she will bear.
Why would I want a hundred children? Dany turned to the Green Grace. If we should wed by
Westerosi rites 
The gods of Ghis would deem it no true union. Galazza Galares face was hidden behind a veil
of green silk. Only her eyes showed, green and wise and sad. In the eyes of the city you would be the
noble Hizdahrs concubine, not his lawful wedded wife. Your children would be bastards. Your Worship
must marry Hizdahr in the Temple of the Graces, with all the nobility of Meereen on hand to bear
witness to your union.
Get the heads of all the noble houses out of their pyramids on some pretext, Daario had said. The
dragons words are fire and blood. Dany pushed the thought aside. It was not worthy of her. As you
wish, she sighed. I shall marry Hizdahr in the Temple of the Graces wrapped in a white tokar fringed
with baby pearls. Is there anything else?
One more small matter, Your Worship, said Reznak. To celebrate your nuptials, it would be
most fitting if you would allow the fighting pits to open once again. It would be your wedding gift to
Hizdahr and to your loving people, a sign that you had embraced the ancient ways and customs of
Meereen.
And most pleasing to the gods as well, the Green Grace added in her soft and kindly voice.
A bride price paid in blood. Daenerys was weary of fighting this battle. Even Ser Barristan did not
think she could win. No ruler can make a people good, Selmy had told her. Baelor the Blessed prayed
and fasted and built the Seven as splendid a temple as any gods could wish for, yet he could not put an
end to war and want. A queen must listen to her people, Dany reminded herself. After the wedding
Hizdahr will be king. Let him reopen the fighting pits if he wishes. I want no part of it. Let the blood be
on his hands, not mine. She rose. If my husband wishes me to wash his feet, he must first wash mine. I
will tell him so this evening. She wondered how her betrothed would take that.
She need not have been concerned. Hizdahr zo Loraq arrived an hour after the sun had set. His
own tokar was burgundy, with a golden stripe and a fringe of golden beads. Dany told him of her
meeting with Reznak and the Green Grace as she was pouring wine for him. These rituals are empty,
Hizdahr declared, just the sort of thing we must sweep aside.
Meereen has been steeped in these foolish old traditions for too long. He kissed her hand and
said, Daenerys, my queen, I will gladly wash you from head to heel if that is what I must do to be your
king and consort.
To be my king and consort, you need only bring me peace. Skahaz tells me you have had
messages of late.

I have. Hizdahr crossed his long legs. He looked pleased with himself. Yunkai will give us
peace, but for a price. The disruption of the slave trade has caused great injury throughout the civilized
world. Yunkai and her allies will require an indemnity of us, to be paid in gold and gem-stones.
Gold and gems were easy. What else?
The Yunkaii will resume slaving, as before. Astapor will be rebuilt, as a slave city. You will not
interfere.
The Yunkaii resumed their slaving before I was two leagues from their city. Did I turn back?
King Cleon begged me to join with him against them, and I turned a deaf ear to his pleas. I want no war
with Yunkai. How many times must I say it? What promises do they require?
Ah, there is the thorn in the bower, my queen, said Hizdahr zo Loraq. Sad to say, Yunkai has
no faith in your promises. They keep plucking the same string on the harp, about some envoy that your
dragons set on fire.
Only his tokar was burned, said Dany scornfully. Be that as it may, they do not trust you. The
men of New Ghis feel the same. Words are wind, as you yourself have so oft said. No words of yours will
secure this peace for Meereen. Your foes require deeds. They would see us wed, and they would see me
crowned as king, to rule beside you.
Dany filled his wine cup again, wanting nothing so much as to pour the flagon over his head and
drown his complacent smile. Marriage or carnage. A wedding or a war. Are those my choices?
I see only one choice, Your Radiance. Let us say our vows before the gods of Ghis and make a
new Meereen together.
The queen was framing her response when she heard a step behind her. The food, she thought.
Her cooks had promised her to serve the noble Hizdahrs favorite meal, dog in honey, stuffed with
prunes and peppers. But when she turned to look, it was Ser Barristan standing there, freshly bathed
and clad in white, his longsword at his side. Your Grace, he said, bowing, I am sorry to disturb you,
but I thought that you would want to know at once. The Stormcrows have returned to the city, with
word of the foe. The Yunkishmen are on the march, just as we had feared.
A flicker of annoyance crossed the noble face of Hizdahr zo Loraq. The queen is at her supper.
These sellswords can wait.
Ser Barristan ignored him. I asked Lord Daario to make his report to me, as Your Grace had
commanded. He laughed and said that he would write it out in his own blood if Your Grace would send
your little scribe to show him how to make the letters.
Blood? said Dany, horrified. Is that a jape? No. No, dont tell me, I must see him for myself.
She was a young girl, and alone, and young girls can change their minds. Convene my captains and
commanders. Hizdahr, I know you will forgive me.

Meereen must come first. Hizdahr smiled genially. We will have other nights. A thousand
nights.
Ser Barristan will show you out. Dany hurried off, calling for her handmaids. She would not
welcome her captain home in a tokar. In the end she tried a dozen gowns before she found one she
liked, but she refused the crown that Jhiqui offered her.
As Daario Naharis took a knee before her, Danys heart gave a lurch. His hair was matted with
dried blood, and on his temple a deep cut glistened red and raw. His right sleeve was bloody almost to
the elbow. Youre hurt, she gasped.
This? Daario touched his temple. A crossbowman tried to put a quarrel through my eye, but I
outrode it. I was hurrying home to my queen, to bask in the warmth of her smile. He shook his sleeve,
spattering red droplets. This blood is not mine. One of my serjeants said we should go over to the
Yunkaii, so I reached down his throat and pulled his heart out. I meant to bring it to you as a gift for my
silver queen, but four of the Cats cut me off and came snarling and spitting after me. One almost caught
me, so I threw the heart into his face.
Very gallant, said Ser Barristan, in a tone that suggested it was anything but, but do you have
tidings for Her Grace?
Hard tidings, Ser Grandfather. Astapor is gone, and the slavers are coming north in strength.
This is old news, and stale, growled the Shavepate. Your mother said the same of your
fathers kisses, Daario replied. Sweet queen, I would have been here sooner, but the hills are aswarm
with Yunkish sellswords. Four free companies. Your Stormcrows had to cut their way through all of
them. There is more, and worse. The Yunkaii are marching their host up the coast road, joined by four
legions out of New Ghis. They have elephants, a hundred, armored and towered. Tolosi slingers too, and
a corps of Qartheen camelry. Two more Ghiscari legions took ship at Astapor. If our captives told it true,
they will be landed beyond the Skahazadhan to cut us off from the Dothraki sea.
As he told his tale, from time to time a drop of bright red blood would patter against the marble
floor, and Dany would wince. How many men were killed? she asked when he was done.
Of ours? I did not stop to count. We gained more than we lost, though.
More turncloaks?
More brave men drawn to your noble cause. My queen will like them. One is an axeman from
the Basilisk Isles, a brute, bigger than Belwas. You should see him. Some Westerosi too, a score or more.
Deserters from the Windblown, unhappy with the Yunkaii. Theyll make good Stormcrows.
If you say. Dany would not quibble. Meereen might soon have need of every sword.
Ser Barristan frowned at Daario. Captain, you made mention of four free companies. We know
of only three. The Windblown, the Long Lances, and the Company of the Cat.

Ser Grandfather knows how to count. The Second Sons have gone over to the Yunkaii. Daario
turned his head and spat. Thats for Brown Ben Plumm. When next I see his ugly face I will open him
from throat to groin and rip out his black heart.
Dany tried to speak and found no words. She remembered Bens face the last time she had seen
it. It was a warm face, a face I trusted. Dark skin and white hair, the broken nose, the wrinkles at the
corners of his eyes. Even the dragons had been fond of old Brown Ben, who liked to boast that he had a
drop of dragon blood himself. Three treasons will you know. Once for gold and once for blood and once
for love. Was Plumm the third treason, or the second? And what did that make Ser Jorah, her gruff old
bear? Would she never have a friend that she could trust? What good are prophecies if you cannot make
sense of them? If I marry Hizdahr before the sun comes up, will all these armies melt away like morning
dew and let me rule in peace?
Daarios announcement had sparked an uproar. Reznak was wailing, the Shavepate was
muttering darkly, her bloodriders were swearing vengeance. Strong Belwas thumped his scarred belly
with his fist and swore to eat Brown Bens heart with plums and onions. Please, Dany said, but only
Missandei seemed to hear. The queen got to her feet. Be quiet! I have heard enough.
Your Grace. Ser Barristan went to one knee. We are yours to command. What would you
have us do?
Continue as we planned. Gather food, as much as you can. If I look back I am lost. We must
close the gates and put every fighting man upon the walls. No one enters, no one leaves.
The hall was quiet for a moment. The men looked at one another. Then Reznak said, What of
the Astapori?
She wanted to scream, to gnash her teeth and tear her clothes and beat upon the floor. Instead
she said, Close the gates. Will you make me say it thrice? They were her children, but she could not
help them now. Leave me. Daario, remain. That cut should be washed, and I have more questions for
you.
The others bowed and went. Dany took Daario Naharis up the steps to her bedchamber, where
Irri washed his cut with vinegar and Jhiqui wrapped it in white linen. When that was done she sent her
handmaids off as well. Your clothes are stained with blood, she told Daario. Take them off.
Only if you do the same. He kissed her.
His hair smelled of blood and smoke and horse, and his mouth was hard and hot on hers. Dany
trembled in his arms. When they broke apart, she said, I thought you would be the one to betray me.
Once for blood and once for gold and once for love, the warlocks said. I thought  I never thought
Brown Ben. Even my dragons seemed to trust him. She clutched her captain by the shoulders. Promise
me that you will never turn against me. I could not bear that. Promise me.
Never, my love.

She believed him. I swore that I should wed Hizdahr zo Loraq if he gave me ninety days of
peace, but now  I wanted you from the first time that I saw you, but you were a sellsword, fickle,
treacherous. You boasted that youd had a hundred women.
A hundred? Daario chuckled through his purple beard. I lied, sweet queen. It was a thousand.
But never once a dragon.
She raised her lips to his. What are you waiting for?
THE PRINCE OF WINTERFELL
The hearth was caked with cold black ash, the room unheated but for candles. Every time a door
opened their flames would sway and shiver. The bride was shivering too. They had dressed her in white
lambs-wool trimmed with lace. Her sleeves and bodice were sewn with freshwater pearls, and on her
feet were white doeskin slipperspretty, but not warm. Her face was pale, bloodless.
A face carved of ice, Theon Greyjoy thought as he draped a fur-trimmed cloak about her
shoulders. A corpse buried in the snow. My lady. It is time. Beyond the door, the music called them,
lute and pipes and drum.
The bride raised her eyes. Brown eyes, shining in the candlelight. I will be a good wife to him,
and t-true. I  I will please him and give him sons. I will be a better wife than the real Arya could have
been, hell see.
Talk like that will get you killed, or worse. That lesson he had learned as Reek. You are the real
Arya, my lady. Arya of House Stark, Lord Eddards daughter, heir to Winterfell. Her name, she had to
know her name. Arya Underfoot. Your sister used to call you Arya Horseface.
It was me made up that name. Her face was long and horsey. Mine isnt. I was pretty. Tears
spilled from her eyes at last. I was never beautiful like Sansa, but they all said I was pretty. Does Lord
Ramsay think I am pretty?
Yes, he lied. Hes told me so.
He knows who I am, though. Who I really am. I see it when he looks at me. He looks so angry,
even when he smiles, but its not my fault. They say he likes to hurt people.
My lady should not listen to such  lies.
They say that he hurt you. Your hands, and 
His mouth was dry. I  I deserved it. I made him angry. You must not make him angry. Lord
Ramsay is a  a sweet man, and kindly. Please him, and he will be good to you. Be a good wife.

Help me. She clutched at him. Please. I used to watch you in the yard, playing with your
swords. You were so handsome. She squeezed his arm. If we ran away, I could be your wife, or your 
your whore  whatever you wanted. You could be my man.
Theon wrenched his arm away from her. Im no  Im no ones man. A man would help her.
Just  just be Arya, be his wife. Please him, or  just please him, and stop this talk about being
someone else. Jeyne, her name is Jeyne, it rhymes with pain. The music was growing more insistent. It
is time. Wipe those tears from your eyes. Brown eyes. They should be grey. Someone will see. Someone
will remember. Good. Now smile.
The girl tried. Her lips, trembling, twitched up and froze, and he could see her teeth. Pretty
white teeth, he thought, but if she angers him, they will not be pretty long. When he pushed the door
open, three of the four candles fluttered out. He led the bride into the mist, where the wedding guests
were waiting.
Why me? he had asked when Lady Dustin told him he must give the bride away.
Her father is dead and all her brothers. Her mother perished at the Twins. Her uncles are lost or
dead or captive.
She has a brother still. She has three brothers still, he might have said. Jon Snow is with the
Nights Watch.
A half-brother, bastard-born, and bound to the Wall. You were her fathers ward, the nearest
thing she has to living kin. It is only fitting that you give her hand in marriage.
The nearest thing she has to living kin. Theon Greyjoy had grown up with Arya Stark. Theon
would have known an imposter. If he was seen to accept Boltons feigned girl as Arya, the northern lords
who had gathered to bear witness to the match would have no grounds to question her legitimacy.
Stout and Slate, Whoresbane Umber, the quarrelsome Ryswells, Hornwood men and Cerywn cousins, fat
Lord Wyman Manderly  not one of them had known Ned Starks daughters half so well as he. And if a
few entertained private doubts, surely they would be wise enough to keep those misgivings to
themselves.
They are using me to cloak their deception, putting mine own face on their lie. That was why
Roose Bolton had clothed him as a lord again, to play his part in this mummers farce. Once that was
done, once their false Arya had been wedded and bedded, Bolton would have no more use for Theon
Turncloak. Serve us in this, and when Stannis is defeated we will discuss how best to restore you to
your fathers seat, his lordship had said in that soft voice of his, a voice made for lies and whispers.
Theon never believed a word of it. He would dance this dance for them because he had no choice, but
afterward  He will give me back to Ramsay then, he thought, and Ramsay will take a few more fingers
and turn me into Reek once more. Unless the gods were good, and Stannis Baratheon descended on
Winterfell and put all of them to the sword, himself included. That was the best he could hope for.

It was warmer in the godswood, strange to say. Beyond its confines, a hard white frost gripped
Winterfell. The paths were treacherous with black ice, and hoarfrost sparkled in the moonlight on the
broken panes of the Glass Gardens. Drifts of dirty snow had piled up against the walls, filling every nook
and corner. Some were so high they hid the doors behind them. Under the snow lay grey ash and
cinders, and here and there a blackened beam or a pile of bones adorned with scraps of skin and hair.
Icicles long as lances hung from the battlements and fringed the towers like an old mans stiff white
whiskers. But inside the godswood, the ground remained unfrozen, and steam rose off the hot pools, as
warm as babys breath.
The bride was garbed in white and grey, the colors the true Arya would have worn had she lived
long enough to wed. Theon wore black and gold, his cloak pinned to his shoulder by a crude iron kraken
that a smith in Barrowton had hammered together for him. But under the hood, his hair was white and
thin, and his flesh had an old mans greyish undertone. A Stark at last, he thought. Arm in arm, the bride
and he passed through an arched stone door, as wisps of fog stirred round their legs. The drum was as
tremulous as a maidens heart, the pipes high and sweet and beckoning. Up above the treetops, a
crescent moon was floating in a dark sky, half-obscured by mist, like an eye peering through a veil of silk.
Theon Greyjoy was no stranger to this godswood. He had played here as a boy, skipping stones
across the cold black pool beneath the weirwood, hiding his treasures in the bole of an ancient oak,
stalking squirrels with a bow he made himself. Later, older, he had soaked his bruises in the hot springs
after many a session in the yard with Robb and Jory and Jon Snow. In amongst these chestnuts and elms
and soldier pines he had found secret places where he could hide when he wanted to be alone. The first
time he had ever kissed a girl had been here. Later, a different girl had made a man of him upon a
ragged quilt in the shade of that tall grey-green sentinel.
He had never seen the godswood like this, thoughgrey and ghostly, filled with warm mists and
floating lights and whispered voices that seemed to come from everywhere and nowhere. Beneath the
trees, the hot springs steamed. Warm vapors rose from the earth, shrouding the trees in their moist
breath, creeping up the walls to draw grey curtains across the watching windows.
There was a path of sorts, a meandering footpath of cracked stones overgrown with moss,
half-buried beneath blown dirt and fallen leaves and made treacherous by thick brown roots pushing up
from underneath. He led the bride along it. Jeyne, her name is Jeyne, it rhymes with pain. He must not
think that, though. Should that name pass his lips, it might cost him a finger or an ear. He walked slowly,
watching every step. His missing toes made him hobble when he hurried, and it would not do to
stumble. Mar Lord Ramsays wedding with a misstep, and Lord Ramsay might rectify such clumsiness by
flaying the offending foot.
The mists were so thick that only the nearest trees were visible; beyond them stood tall
shadows and faint lights. Candles flickered beside the wandering path and back amongst the trees, pale
fireflies floating in a warm grey soup. It felt like some strange underworld, some timeless place between
the worlds, where the damned wandered mournfully for a time before finding their way down to

whatever hell their sins had earned them. Are we all dead, then? Did Stannis come and kill us in our
sleep? Is the battle yet to come, or has it been fought and lost?
Here and there a torch burned hungrily, casting its ruddy glow over the faces of the wedding
guests. The way the mists threw back the shifting light made their features seem bestial, half-human,
twisted. Lord Stout became a mastiff, old Lord Locke a vulture, Whoresbane Umber a gargoyle, Big
Walder Frey a fox, Little Walder a red bull, lacking only a ring for his nose. Roose Boltons own face was
a pale grey mask, with two chips of dirty ice where his eyes should be.
Above their heads the trees were full of ravens, their feathers fluffed as they hunched on bare
brown branches, staring down at the pageantry below. Maester Luwins birds. Luwin was dead, and his
maesters tower had been put to the torch, yet the ravens lingered. This is their home. Theon wondered
what that would be like, to have a home.
Then the mists parted, like the curtain opening at a mummer show to reveal some new tableau.
The heart tree appeared in front of them, its bony limbs spread wide. Fallen leaves lay about the wide
white trunk in drifts of red and brown. The ravens were the thickest here, muttering to one another in
the murderers secret tongue. Ramsay Bolton stood beneath them, clad in high boots of soft grey
leather and a black velvet doublet slashed with pink silk and glittering with garnet teardrops. A smile
danced across his face. Who comes? His lips were moist, his neck red above his collar. Who comes
before the god?
Theon answered. Arya of House Stark comes here to be wed. A woman grown and flowered,
trueborn and noble, she comes to beg the blessings of the gods. Who comes to claim her?
Me, said Ramsay. Ramsay of House Bolton, Lord of the Hornwood, heir to the Dreadfort. I
claim her. Who gives her?
Theon of House Greyjoy, who was her fathers ward. He turned to the bride. Lady Arya, will
you take this man?
She raised her eyes to his. Brown eyes, not grey. Are all of them so blind? For a long moment she
did not speak, but those eyes were begging. This is your chance, he thought. Tell them. Tell them now.
Shout out your name before them all, tell them that you are not Arya Stark, let all the north hear how
you were made to play this part. It would mean her death, of course, and his own as well, but Ramsay in
his wroth might kill them quickly. The old gods of the north might grant them that small boon.
I take this man, the bride said in a whisper.
All around them lights glimmered through the mists, a hundred candles pale as shrouded stars.
Theon stepped back, and Ramsay and his bride joined hands and knelt before the heart tree, bowing
their heads in token of submission. The weirwoods carved red eyes stared down at them, its great red
mouth open as if to laugh. In the branches overhead a raven quorked.

After a moment of silent prayer, the man and woman rose again. Ramsay undid the cloak that
Theon had slipped about his brides shoulders moments before, the heavy white wool cloak bordered in
grey fur, emblazoned with the direwolf of House Stark. In its place he fastened a pink cloak, spattered
with red garnets like those upon his doublet. On its back was the flayed man of the Dreadfort done in
stiff red leather, grim and grisly.
Quick as that, it was done. Weddings went more quickly in the north. It came of not having
priests, Theon supposed, but whatever the reason it seemed to him a mercy. Ramsay Bolton scooped his
wife up in his arms and strode through the mists with her. Lord Bolton and his Lady Walda followed,
then the rest. The musicians began to play again, and the bard Abel began to sing Two Hearts That Beat
as One. Two of his women joined their voices to his own to make a sweet harmony.
Theon found himself wondering if he should say a prayer. Will the old gods hear me if I do? They
were not his gods, had never been his gods. He was ironborn, a son of Pyke, his god was the Drowned
God of the islands  but Winterfell was long leagues from the sea. It had been a lifetime since any god
had heard him. He did not know who he was, or what he was, why he was still alive, why he had ever
been born.
Theon, a voice seemed to whisper.
His head snapped up. Who said that? All he could see were the trees and the fog that covered
them. The voice had been as faint as rustling leaves, as cold as hate. A gods voice, or a ghosts. How
many died the day that he took Winterfell? How many more the day he lost it? The day that Theon
Greyjoy died, to be reborn as Reek. Reek, Reek, it rhymes with shriek.
Suddenly he did not want to be here.
Once outside the godswood the cold descended on him like a ravening wolf and caught him in
its teeth. He lowered his head into the wind and made for the Great Hall, hastening after the long line of
candles and torches. Ice crunched beneath his boots, and a sudden gust pushed back his hood, as if a
ghost had plucked at him with frozen fingers, hungry to gaze upon his face.
Winterfell was full of ghosts for Theon Greyjoy.
This was not the castle he remembered from the summer of his youth. This place was scarred
and broken, more ruin than redoubt, a haunt of crows and corpses. The great double curtain wall still
stood, for granite does not yield easily to fire, but most of the towers and keeps within were roofless. A
few had collapsed. The thatch and timber had been consumed by fire, in whole or in part, and under the
shattered panes of the Glass Garden the fruits and vegetables that would have fed the castle during the
winter were dead and black and frozen. Tents filled the yard, half-buried in the snow. Roose Bolton had
brought his host inside the walls, along with his friends the Freys; thousands huddled amongst the ruins,
crowding every court, sleeping in cellar vaults and under topless towers, and in buildings abandoned for
centuries.

Plumes of grey smoke snaked up from the rebuilt kitchens and reroofed barracks keep. The
battlements and crenellations were crowned with snow and hung with icicles. All the color had been
leached from Winterfell until only grey and white remained. The Stark colors. Theon did not know
whether he ought to find that ominous or reassuring. Even the sky was grey. Grey and grey and greyer.
The whole world grey, everywhere you look, everything grey except the eyes of the bride. The eyes of the
bride were brown. Big and brown and full of fear. It was not right that she should look to him for rescue.
What had she been thinking, that he would whistle up a winged horse and fly her out of here, like some
hero in the stories she and Sansa used to love? He could not even help himself. Reek, Reek, it rhymes
with meek.
All about the yard, dead men hung half-frozen at the end of hempen ropes, swollen faces white
with hoarfrost. Winterfell had been crawling with squatters when Boltons van had reached the castle.
More than two dozen had been driven at spearpoint from the nests they had made amongst the castles
half-ruined keeps and towers. The boldest and most truculent had been hanged, the rest put to work.
Serve well, Lord Bolton told them, and he would be merciful. Stone and timber were plentiful with the
wolfswood so close at hand. Stout new gates had gone up first, to replace those that had been burned.
Then the collapsed roof of the Great Hall had been cleared away and a new one raised hurriedly in its
stead. When the work was done, Lord Bolton hanged the workers. True to his word, he showed them
mercy and did not flay a one.
By that time, the rest of Boltons army had arrived. They raised King Tommens stag and lion
above the walls of Winterfell as the wind came howling from the north, and below it the flayed man of
the Dreadfort. Theon arrived in Barbrey Dustins train, with her ladyship herself, her Barrowton levies,
and the bride-to-be. Lady Dustin had insisted that she should have custody of Lady Arya until such time
as she was wed, but now that time was done. She belongs to Ramsay now. She said the words. By this
marriage Ramsay would be Lord of Winterfell. So long as Jeyne took care not to anger him, he should
have no cause to harm her. Arya. Her name is Arya.
Even inside fur-lined gloves, Theons hands had begun to throb with pain. It was often his hands
that hurt the worst, especially his missing fingers. Had there truly been a time when women yearned for
his touch? I made myself the Prince of Winterfell, he thought, and from that came all of this. He had
thought that men would sing of him for a hundred years and tell tales of his daring. But if anyone spoke
of him now, it was as Theon Turncloak, and the tales they told were of his treachery. This was never my
home. I was a hostage here. Lord Stark had not treated him cruelly, but the long steel shadow of his
greatsword had always been between them. He was kind to me, but never warm. He knew that one day
he might need to put me to death.
Theon kept his eyes downcast as he crossed the yard, weaving between the tents. I learned to
fight in this yard, he thought, remembering warm summer days spent sparring with Robb and Jon Snow
under the watchful eyes of old Ser Rodrik. That was back when he was whole, when he could grasp a
sword hilt as well as any man. But the yard held darker memories as well. This was where he had
assembled Starks people the night Bran and Rickon fled the castle. Ramsay was Reek then, standing at
his side, whispering that he should flay a few of his captives to make them tell him where the boys had

gone. There will be no flaying here whilst I am Prince of Winterfell, Theon had responded, little dreaming
how short his rule would prove. None of them would help me. I had known them all for half my life, and
not one of them would help me. Even so, he had done his best to protect them, but once Ramsay put
Reeks face aside hed slain all the men, and Theons ironborn as well. He set my horse afire. That was
the last sight he had seen the day the castle fell: Smiler burning, the flames leaping from his mane as he
reared up, kicking, screaming, his eyes white with terror. Here in this very yard.
The doors of the Great Hall loomed up in front of him; new-made, to replace the doors that
burned, they seemed crude and ugly to him, raw planks hastily joined. A pair of spearmen guarded
them, hunched and shivering under thick fur cloaks, their beards crusty with ice. They eyed Theon
resentfully as he hobbled up the steps, pushed against the right-hand door, and slipped inside.
The hall was blessedly warm and bright with torchlight, as crowded as he had ever seen it.
Theon let the heat wash over him, then made his way toward the front of the hall. Men sat crammed
knee to knee along the benches, so tightly packed that the servers had to squirm between them. Even
the knights and lords above the salt enjoyed less space than usual.
Up near the dais, Abel was plucking at his lute and singing Fair Maids of Summer. He calls
himself a bard. In truth hes more a pander. Lord Manderly had brought musicians from White Harbor,
but none were singers, so when Abel turned up at the gates with a lute and six women, he had been
made welcome. Two sisters, two daughters, one wife, and my old mother, the singer claimed, though
not one looked like him. Some dance, some sing, one plays the pipe and one the drums. Good
washerwomen too.
Bard or pander, Abels voice was passable, his playing fair. Here amongst the ruins, that was as
much as anyone might expect.
Along the walls the banners hung: the horseheads of the Ryswells in gold, brown, grey, and
black; the roaring giant of House Umber; the stone hand of House Flint of Flints Finger; the moose of
Hornwood and the merman of Manderly; Cerwyns black battle-axe and the Tallhart pines. Yet their
bright colors could not entirely cover the blackened walls behind them, nor the boards that closed the
holes where windows once had been. Even the roof was wrong, its raw new timbers light and bright,
where the old rafters had been stained almost black by centuries of smoke.
The largest banners were behind the dais, where the direwolf of Winterfell and the flayed man
of the Dreadfort hung back of the bride and groom. The sight of the Stark banner hit Theon harder than
he had expected. Wrong, its wrong, as wrong as her eyes. The arms of House Poole were a blue plate
on white, framed by a grey tressure. Those were the arms they should have hung.
Theon Turncloak, someone said as he passed. Other men turned away at the sight of him. One
spat. And why not? He was the traitor who had taken Winterfell by treachery, slain his foster brothers,
delivered his own people to be flayed at Moat Cailin, and given his foster sister to Lord Ramsays bed.
Roose Bolton might make use of him, but true northmen must despise him.

The missing toes on his left foot had left him with a crabbed, awkward gait, comical to look
upon. Back behind him, he heard a woman laugh. Even here in this half-frozen lichyard of a castle,
surrounded by snow and ice and death, there were women. Washerwomen. That was the polite way of
saying camp follower, which was the polite way of saying whore.
Where they came from Theon could not say. They just seemed to appear, like maggots on a
corpse or ravens after a battle. Every army drew them. Some were hardened whores who could fuck
twenty men in a night and drink them all blind. Others looked as innocent as maids, but that was just a
trick of their trade. Some were camp brides, bound to the soldiers they followed with words whispered
to one god or another but doomed to be forgotten once the war was done. They would warm a mans
bed by night, patch the holes in his boots at morning, cook his supper come dusk, and loot his corpse
after the battle. Some even did a bit of washing. With them, oft as not, came bastard children,
wretched, filthy creatures born in one camp or the other. And even such as these made mock of Theon
Turncloak. Let them laugh. His pride had perished here in Winterfell; there was no place for such in the
dungeons of the Dreadfort. When you have known the kiss of a flaying knife, a laugh loses all its power
to hurt you.
Birth and blood accorded him a seat upon the dais at the end of the high table, beside a wall. To
his left sat Lady Dustin, clad as ever in black wool, severe in cut and unadorned. To his right sat no one.
They are all afraid the dishonor might rub off on them. If he had dared, he would have laughed.
The bride had the place of highest honor, between Ramsay and his father. She sat with eyes
downcast as Roose Bolton bid them drink to Lady Arya. In her children our two ancient houses will
become as one, he said, and the long enmity between Stark and Bolton will be ended. His voice was
so soft that the hall grew hushed as men strained to hear. I am sorry that our good friend Stannis has
not seen fit to join us yet, he went on, to a ripple of laughter, as I know Ramsay had hoped to present
his head to Lady Arya as a wedding gift. The laughs grew louder. We shall give him a splendid welcome
when he arrives, a welcome worthy of true northmen. Until that day, let us eat and drink and make
merry  for winter is almost upon us, my friends, and many of us here shall not live to see the spring.
The Lord of White Harbor had furnished the food and drink, black stout and yellow beer and
wines red and gold and purple, brought up from the warm south on fat-bottomed ships and aged in his
deep cellars. The wedding guests gorged on cod cakes and winter squash, hills of neeps and great round
wheels of cheese, on smoking slabs of mutton and beef ribs charred almost black, and lastly on three
great wedding pies, as wide across as wagon wheels, their flaky crusts stuffed to bursting with carrots,
onions, turnips, parsnips, mushrooms, and chunks of seasoned pork swimming in a savory brown gravy.
Ramsay hacked off slices with his falchion and Wyman Manderly himself served, presenting the first
steaming portions to Roose Bolton and his fat Frey wife, the next to Ser Hosteen and Ser Aenys, the sons
of Walder Frey. The best pie you have ever tasted, my lords, the fat lord declared. Wash it down with
Arbor gold and savor every bite. I know I shall.
True to his word, Manderly devoured six portions, two from each of the three pies, smacking his
lips and slapping his belly and stuffing himself until the front of his tunic was half-brown with gravy

stains and his beard was flecked with crumbs of crust. Even Fat Walda Frey could not match his gluttony,
though she did manage three slices herself. Ramsay ate heartily as well, though his pale bride did no
more than stare at the portion set before her. When she raised her head and looked at Theon, he could
see the fear behind her big brown eyes.
No longswords had been allowed within the hall, but every man there wore a dagger, even
Theon Greyjoy. How else to cut his meat? Every time he looked at the girl who had been Jeyne Poole, he
felt the presence of that steel at his side. I have no way to save her, he thought, but I could kill her easy
enough. No one would expect it. I could beg her for the honor of a dance and cut her throat. That would
be a kindness, wouldnt it? And if the old gods hear my prayer, Ramsay in his wroth might strike me dead
as well. Theon was not afraid to die. Underneath the Dreadfort, he had learned there were far worse
things than death. Ramsay had taught him that lesson, finger by finger and toe by toe, and it was not
one that he was ever like to forget.
You do not eat, observed Lady Dustin. No. Eating was hard for him. Ramsay had left him
with so many broken teeth that chewing was an agony. Drinking was easier, though he had to grasp the
wine cup with both hands to keep from dropping it.
No taste for pork pie, my lord? The best pork pie we ever tasted, our fat friend would have us
believe. She gestured toward Lord Manderly with her wine cup. Have you ever seen a fat man so
happy? He is almost dancing. Serving with his own hands.
It was true. The Lord of White Harbor was the very picture of the jolly fat man, laughing and
smiling, japing with the other lords and slapping them on the back, calling out to the musicians for this
tune or that tune. Give us The Night That Ended, singer, he bellowed. The bride will like that one, I
know. Or sing to us of brave young Danny Flint and make us weep. To look at him, you would have
thought that he was the one newly wed.
Hes drunk, said Theon. Drowning his fears. He is craven to the bone, that one.
Was he? Theon was not certain. His sons had been fat as well, but they had not shamed
themselves in battle. Ironborn will feast before a battle too. A last taste of life, should death await. If
Stannis comes 
He will. He must. Lady Dustin chuckled. And when he does, the fat man will piss himself. His
son died at the Red Wedding, yet hes shared his bread and salt with Freys, welcomed them beneath his
roof, promised one his granddaughter. He even serves them pie. The Manderlys ran from the south
once, hounded from their lands and keeps by enemies. Blood runs true. The fat man would like to kill us
all, I do not doubt, but he does not have the belly for it, for all his girth. Under that sweaty flesh beats a
heart as craven and cringing as  well  yours.
Her last word was a lash, but Theon dared not answer back in kind. Any insolence would cost
him skin. If my lady believes Lord Manderly wants to betray us, Lord Bolton is the one to tell.

You think Roose does not know? Silly boy. Watch him. Watch how he watches Manderly. No
dish so much as touches Rooses lips until he sees Lord Wyman eat of it first. No cup of wine is sipped
until he sees Manderly drink of the same cask. I think he would be pleased if the fat man attempted
some betrayal. It would amuse him. Roose has no feelings, you see. Those leeches that he loves so well
sucked all the passions out of him years ago. He does not love, he does not hate, he does not grieve.
This is a game to him, mildly diverting. Some men hunt, some hawk, some tumble dice. Roose plays with
men. You and me, these Freys, Lord Manderly, his plump new wife, even his bastard, we are but his
playthings. A serving man was passing by. Lady Dustin held out her wine cup and let him fill it, then
gestured for him to do the same for Theon. Truth be told, she said, Lord Bolton aspires to more than
mere lordship. Why not King of the North? Tywin Lannister is dead, the Kingslayer is maimed, the Imp is
fled. The Lannisters are a spent force, and you were kind enough to rid him of the Starks. Old Walder
Frey will not object to his fat little Walda becoming a queen. White Harbor might prove troublesome
should Lord Wyman survive this coming battle  but I am quite sure that he will not. No more than
Stannis. Roose will remove both of them, as he removed the Young Wolf. Who else is there?
You, said Theon. There is you. The Lady of Barrowton, a Dustin by marriage, a Ryswell by
birth.
That pleased her. She took a sip of wine, her dark eyes sparkling, and said, The widow of
Barrowton  and yes, if I so choose, I could be an inconvenience. Of course, Roose sees that too, so he
takes care to keep me sweet.
She might have said more, but then she saw the maesters. Three of them had entered together
by the lords door behind the daisone tall, one plump, one very young, but in their robes and chains
they were three grey peas from a black pod. Before the war, Medrick had served Lord Hornwood,
Rhodry Lord Cerwyn, and young Henly Lord Slate. Roose Bolton had brought them all to Winterfell to
take charge of Luwins ravens, so messages might be sent and received from here again.
As Maester Medrick went to one knee to whisper in Boltons ear, Lady Dustins mouth twisted in
distaste. If I were queen, the first thing I would do would be to kill all those grey rats. They scurry
everywhere, living on the leavings of the lords, chittering to one another, whispering in the ears of their
masters. But who are the masters and who are the servants, truly? Every great lord has his maester,
every lesser lord aspires to one. If you do not have a maester, it is taken to mean that you are of little
consequence. The grey rats read and write our letters, even for such lords as cannot read themselves,
and who can say for a certainty that they are not twisting the words for their own ends? What good are
they, I ask you?
They heal, said Theon. It seemed to be expected of him.
They heal, yes. I never said they were not subtle. They tend to us when we are sick and injured,
or distraught over the illness of a parent or a child. Whenever we are weakest and most vulnerable,
there they are. Sometimes they heal us, and we are duly grateful. When they fail, they console us in our
grief, and we are grateful for that as well. Out of gratitude we give them a place beneath our roof and

make them privy to all our shames and secrets, a part of every council. And before too long, the ruler
has become the ruled.
That was how it was with Lord Rickard Stark. Maester Walys was his grey rats name. And isnt
it clever how the maesters go by only one name, even those who had two when they first arrived at the
Citadel? That way we cannot know who they truly are or where they come from  but if you are dogged
enough, you can still find out. Before he forged his chain, Maester Walys had been known as Walys
Flowers. Flowers, Hill, Rivers, Snow  we give such names to baseborn children to mark them for what
they are, but they are always quick to shed them. Walys Flowers had a Hightower girl for a mother 
and an archmaester of the Citadel for a father, it was rumored. The grey rats are not as chaste as they
would have us believe. Oldtown maesters are the worst of all. Once he forged his chain, his secret father
and his friends wasted no time dispatching him to Winterfell to fill Lord Rickards ears with poisoned
words as sweet as honey. The Tully marriage was his notion, never doubt it, he
She broke off as Roose Bolton rose to his feet, pale eyes shining in the torchlight. My friends,
he began, and a hush swept through the hall, so profound that Theon could hear the wind plucking at
the boards over the windows. Stannis and his knights have left Deepwood Motte, flying the banner of
his new red god. The clans of the northern hills come with him on their shaggy runtish horses. If the
weather holds, they could be on us in a fortnight. And Crowfood Umber marches down the kingsroad,
whilst the Karstarks approach from the east. They mean to join with Lord Stannis here and take this
castle from us.
Ser Hosteen Frey pushed to his feet. We should ride forth to meet them. Why allow them to
combine their strength?
Because Arnolf Karstark awaits only a sign from Lord Bolton before he turns his cloak, thought
Theon, as other lords began to shout out counsel. Lord Bolton raised his hands for silence. The hall is
not the place for such discussions, my lords. Let us adjourn to the solar whilst my son consummates his
marriage. The rest of you, remain and enjoy the food and drink.
As the Lord of the Dreadfort slipped out, attended by the three maesters, other lords and
captains rose to follow. Hother Umber, the gaunt old man called Whoresbane, went grim-faced and
scowling. Lord Manderly was so drunk he required four strong men to help him from the hall. We
should have a song about the Rat Cook, he was muttering, as he staggered past Theon, leaning on his
knights. Singer, give us a song about the Rat Cook.
Lady Dustin was amongst the last to bestir herself. When she had gone, all at once the hall
seemed stifling. It was not until Theon pushed himself to his feet that he realized how much hed drunk.
When he stumbled from the table, he knocked a flagon from the hands of a serving girl. Wine splashed
across his boots and breeches, a dark red tide.
A hand grabbed his shoulder, five fingers hard as iron digging deep into his flesh. Youre
wanted, Reek, said Sour Alyn, his breath foul with the smell from his rotten teeth. Yellow Dick and
Damon Dance-for-Me were with him. Ramsay says youre to bring his bride to his bed.

A shiver of fear went through him. I played my part, he thought. Why me? He knew better than
to object, though.
Lord Ramsay had already left the hall. His bride, forlorn and seemingly forgotten, sat hunched
and silent beneath the banner of House Stark, clutching a silver goblet in both hands. Judging from the
way she looked at him when he approached, she had emptied that goblet more than once. Perhaps she
hoped that if she drank enough, the ordeal would pass her by. Theon knew better. Lady Arya, he said.
Come. It is time you did your duty.
Six of the Bastards boys accompanied them as Theon led the girl out the back of the hall and
across the frigid yard to the Great Keep. It was up three flights of stone steps to Lord Ramsays
bedchamber, one of the rooms the fires had touched but lightly. As they climbed, Damon Dance-for-Me
whistled, whilst Skinner boasted that Lord Ramsay had promised him a piece of the bloody sheet as a
mark of special favor.
The bedchamber had been well prepared for the consummation. All the furnishings were new,
brought up from Barrowton in the baggage train. The canopy bed had a feather mattress and drapes of
blood-red velvet. The stone floor was covered with wolfskins. A fire was burning in the hearth, a candle
on the bedside table. On the sideboard was a flagon of wine, two cups, and a half wheel of veined white
cheese.
There was a chair as well, carved of black oak with a red leather seat. Lord Ramsay was seated in
it when they entered. Spittle glistened on his lips. Theres my sweet maid. Good lads. You may leave us
now. Not you, Reek. You stay.
Reek, Reek, it rhymes with peek. He could feel his missing fingers cramping: two on his left hand,
one on his right. And on his hip his dagger rested, sleeping in its leather sheath, but heavy, oh so heavy.
It is only my pinky gone on my right hand, Theon reminded himself. I can still grip a knife. My lord. How
may I serve you?
You gave the wench to me. Who better to unwrap the gift? Lets have a look at Ned Starks
little daughter.
She is no kin to Lord Eddard, Theon almost said. Ramsay knows, he has to know. What new cruel
game is this? The girl was standing by a bedpost, trembling like a doe. Lady Arya, if you will turn your
back, I must needs unlace your gown.
No. Lord Ramsay poured himself a cup of wine. Laces take too long. Cut it off her.
Theon drew the dagger. All I need do is turn and stab him. The knife is in my hand. He knew the
game by then. Another trap, he told himself, remembering Kyra with her keys. He wants me to try to kill
him. And when I fail, hell flay the skin from the hand I used to hold the blade. He grabbed a handful of
the brides skirt. Stand still, my lady. The gown was loose below the waist, so that was where he slid
the blade in, slicing upward slowly, so as not to cut her. Steel whispered through wool and silk with a

faint, soft sound. The girl was shaking. Theon had to grab her arm to hold her still. Jeyne, Jeyne, it
rhymes with pain. He tightened his grip, as much as his maimed left hand would allow. Stay still.
Finally the gown fell away, a pale tangle round her feet. Her small-clothes too, Ramsay
commanded. Reek obeyed.
When it was done the bride stood naked, her bridal finery a heap of white and grey rags about
her feet. Her breasts were small and pointed, her hips narrow and girlish, her legs as skinny as a birds. A
child. Theon had forgotten how young she was. Sansas age. Arya would be even younger. Despite the
fire in the hearth, the bedchamber was chilly. Jeynes pale skin was pebbled with gooseprickles. There
was a moment when her hands rose, as if to cover her breasts, but Theon mouthed a silent no and she
saw and stopped at once.
What do you think of her, Reek? asked Lord Ramsay. She  What answer does he want?
What was it the girl had said, before the godswood? They all said that I was pretty. She was not pretty
now. He could see a spiderweb of faint thin lines across her back where someone had whipped her. 
she is beautiful, so  so beautiful.
Ramsay smiled his wet smile. Does she make your cock hard, Reek? Is it straining against your
laces? Would you like to fuck her first? He laughed. The Prince of Winterfell should have that right, as
all lords did in days of old. The first night. But youre no lord, are you? Only Reek. Not even a man, truth
be told. He took another gulp of wine, then threw the cup across the room to shatter off a wall. Red
rivers ran down across the stone. Lady Arya. Get on the bed. Yes, against the pillows, thats a good
wife. Now spread your legs. Let us see your cunt.
The girl obeyed, wordless. Theon took a step back toward the door. Lord Ramsay sat beside his
bride, slid his hand along her inner thigh, then jammed two fingers up inside her. The girl let out a gasp
of pain. Youre dry as an old bone. Ramsay pulled his hand free and slapped her face. I was told that
youd know how to please a man. Was that a lie?
N-no, my lord. I was t-trained.
Ramsay rose, the firelight shining on his face. Reek, get over here. Get her ready for me.
For a moment he did not understand. I  do you mean  mlord, I have no  I 
With your mouth, Lord Ramsay said. And be quick about it. If shes not wet by the time Im
done disrobing, I will cut off that tongue of yours and nail it to the wall.
Somewhere in the godswood, a raven screamed. The dagger was still in his hand.
He sheathed it.
Reek, my name is Reek, it rhymes with weak. Reek bent to his task.

THE WATCHER
Let us look upon this head, his prince commanded.
Areo Hotah ran his hand along the smooth shaft of his longaxe, his ash-and-iron wife, all the
while watching. He watched the white knight, Ser Balon Swann, and the others who had come with him.
He watched the Sand Snakes, each at a different table. He watched the lords and ladies, the serving
men, the old blind seneschal, and the young maester Myles, with his silky beard and servile smile.
Standing half in light and half in shadow, he saw all of them. Serve. Protect. Obey. That was his task.
All the rest had eyes only for the chest. It was carved of ebony, with silver clasps and hinges. A
fine-looking box, no doubt, but many of those assembled here in the Old Palace of Sunspear might soon
be dead, depending on what was in that chest.
His slippers whispering against the floor, Maester Caleotte crossed the hall to Ser Balon Swann.
The round little man looked splendid in his new robes, with their broad bands of dun and butternut and
narrow stripes of red. Bowing, he took the chest from the hands of the white knight and carried it to the
dais, where Doran Martell sat in his rolling chair between his daughter Arianne and his dead brothers
beloved paramour, Ellaria. A hundred scented candles perfumed the air. Gemstones glittered on the
fingers of the lords and the girdles and hairnets of the ladies. Areo Hotah had polished his shirt of
copper scales mirror-bright so he would blaze in the candlelight as well.
A hush had fallen across the hall. Dorne holds its breath. Maester Caleotte set the box on the
floor beside Prince Dorans chair. The maesters fingers, normally so sure and deft, turned clumsy as he
worked the latch and opened the lid, to reveal the skull within. Hotah heard someone clear his throat.
One of the Fowler twins whispered something to the other. Ellaria Sand had closed her eyes and was
murmuring a prayer.
Ser Balon Swann was taut as a drawn bow, the captain of guards observed. This new white
knight was not so tall nor comely as the old one, but he was bigger across the chest, burlier, his arms
thick with muscle. His snowy cloak was clasped at the throat by two swans on a silver brooch. One was
ivory, the other onyx, and it seemed to Areo Hotah as if the two of them were fighting. The man who
wore them looked a fighter too. This one will not die so easy as the other. He will not charge into my axe
the way Ser Arys did. He will stand behind his shield and make me come at him. If it came to that, Hotah
would be ready. His longaxe was sharp enough to shave with.
He allowed himself a brief glance at the chest. The skull rested on a bed of black felt, grinning.
All skulls grinned, but this one seemed happier than most. And bigger. The captain of guards had never
seen a larger skull. Its brow shelf was thick and heavy, its jaw massive. The bone shone in the
candlelight, white as Ser Balons cloak. Place it on the pedestal, the prince commanded. He had tears
glistening in his eyes.

The pedestal was a column of black marble three feet taller than Maester Caleotte. The fat little
maester hopped up on his toes but still could not quite reach. Areo Hotah was about to go and help him,
but Obara Sand moved first. Even without her whip and shield, she had an angry mannish look to her. In
place of a gown, she wore mens breeches and a calf-length linen tunic, cinched at the waist with a belt
of copper suns. Her brown hair was tied back in a knot. Snatching the skull from the maesters soft pink
hands, she placed it up atop the marble column.
The Mountain rides no more, the prince said, gravely. Was his dying long and hard, Ser
Balon? asked Tyene Sand, in the tone a maiden might use to ask if her gown was pretty.
He screamed for days, my lady, the white knight replied, though it was plain that it pleased
him little to say so. We could hear him all over the Red Keep.
Does that trouble you, ser? asked the Lady Nym. She wore a gown of yellow silk so sheer and
fine that the candles shone right through it to reveal the spun gold and jewels beneath. So immodest
was her garb that the white knight seemed uncomfortable looking at her, but Hotah approved. Nymeria
was least dangerous when nearly naked. Elsewise she was sure to have a dozen blades concealed about
her person. Ser Gregor was a bloody brute, all men agree. If ever a man deserved to suffer, it was him.
That is as it may be, my lady, said Balon Swann, but Ser Gregor was a knight, and a knight
should die with sword in hand. Poison is a foul and filthy way to kill.
Lady Tyene smiled at that. Her gown was cream and green, with long lace sleeves, so modest
and so innocent that any man who looked at her might think her the most chaste of maids. Areo Hotah
knew better. Her soft, pale hands were as deadly as Obaras callused ones, if not more so. He watched
her carefully, alert to every little flutter of her fingers.
Prince Doran frowned. That is so, Ser Balon, but the Lady Nym is right. If ever a man deserved
to die screaming, it was Gregor Clegane. He butchered my good sister, smashed her babes head against
a wall. I only pray that now he is burning in some hell, and that Elia and her children are at peace. This is
the justice that Dorne has hungered for. I am glad that I lived long enough to taste it. At long last the
Lannisters have proved the truth of their boast and paid this old blood debt.
The prince left it to Ricasso, his blind seneschal, to rise and propose the toast. Lords and ladies,
let us all now drink to Tommen, the First of His Name, King of the Andals, the Rhoynar, and the First
Men, and Lord of the Seven Kingdoms.
Serving men had begun to move amongst the guests as the seneschal was speaking, filling cups
from the flagons that they bore. The wine was Dornish strongwine, dark as blood and sweet as
vengeance. The captain did not drink of it. He never drank at feasts. Nor did the prince himself partake.
He had his own wine, prepared by Maester Myles and well laced with poppy juice to ease the agony in
his swollen joints.
The white knight did drink, as was only courteous. His companions likewise. So did the Princess
Arianne, Lady Jordayne, the Lord of Gods-grace, the Knight of Lemonwood, the Lady of Ghost Hill  even

Ellaria Sand, Prince Oberyns beloved paramour, who had been with him in Kings Landing when he died.
Hotah paid more note to those who did not drink: Ser Daemon Sand, Lord Tremond Gargalen, the
Fowler twins, Dagos Manwoody, the Ullers of the Hellholt, the Wyls of the Boneway. If there is trouble, it
could start with one of them. Dorne was an angry and divided land, and Prince Dorans hold on it was
not as firm as it might be. Many of his own lords thought him weak and would have welcomed open war
with the Lannisters and the boy king on the Iron Throne.
Chief amongst those were the Sand Snakes, the bastard daughters of the princes late brother
Oberyn, the Red Viper, three of whom were at the feast. Doran Martell was the wisest of princes, and it
was not the place of his captain of guards to question his decisions, but Areo Hotah did wonder why he
had chosen to release the ladies Obara, Nymeria, and Tyene from their lonely cells in the Spear Tower.
Tyene declined Ricassos toast with a murmur and Lady Nym with a flick of a hand. Obara let
them fill her cup to the brim, then upended it to spill the red wine on the floor. When a serving girl knelt
to wipe up the spilled wine, Obara left the hall. After a moment Princess Arianne excused herself and
went after her. Obara would never turn her rage on the little princess, Hotah knew. They are cousins,
and she loves her well.
The feast continued late into the night, presided over by the grinning skull on its pillar of black
marble. Seven courses were served, in honor of the seven gods and the seven brothers of the
Kingsguard. The soup was made with eggs and lemons, the long green peppers stuffed with cheese and
onions. There were lamprey pies, capons glazed with honey, a whiskerfish from the bottom of the
Greenblood that was so big it took four serving men to carry it to table. After that came a savory snake
stew, chunks of seven different sorts of snake slow-simmered with dragon peppers and blood oranges
and a dash of venom to give it a good bite. The stew was fiery hot, Hotah knew, though he tasted none
of it. Sherbet followed, to cool the tongue. For the sweet, each guest was served a skull of spun sugar.
When the crust was broken, they found sweet custard inside and bits of plum and cherry.
Princess Arianne returned in time for the stuffed peppers. My little princess, Hotah thought, but
Arianne was a woman now. The scarlet silks she wore left no doubt of that. Of late she had changed in
other ways as well. Her plot to crown Myrcella had been betrayed and smashed, her white knight had
perished bloodily at Hotahs hand, and she herself had been confined to the Spear Tower, condemned
to solitude and silence. All of that had chastened her. There was something else as well, though, some
secret her father had confided in her before releasing her from her confinement. What that was, the
captain did not know.
The prince had placed his daughter between himself and the white knight, a place of high honor.
Arianne smiled as she slipped into her seat again, and murmured something in Ser Balons ear. The
knight did not choose to respond. He ate little, Hotah observed: a spoon of soup, a bite of the pepper,
the leg off a capon, some fish. He shunned the lamprey pie and tried only one small spoonful of the
stew. Even that made his brow break out in sweat. Hotah could sympathize. When first he came to
Dorne, the fiery food would tie his bowels in knots and burn his tongue. That was years ago, however;
now his hair was white, and he could eat anything a Dornishman could eat.

When the spun-sugar skulls were served, Ser Balons mouth grew tight, and he gave the prince a
lingering look to see if he was being mocked. Doran Martell took no notice, but his daughter did. It is
the cooks little jape, Ser Balon, said Arianne. Even death is not sacred to a Dornishmen. You wont be
cross with us, I pray? She brushed the back of the white knights hand with her fingers. I hope you
have enjoyed your time in Dorne.
Everyone has been most hospitable, my lady.
Arianne touched the pin that clasped his cloak, with its quarreling swans. I have always been
fond of swans. No other bird is half so beautiful, this side of the Summer Isles.
Your peacocks might dispute that, said Ser Balon. They might, said Arianne, but peacocks
are vain, proud creatures, strutting about in all those gaudy colors. Give me a swan serene in white or
beautiful in black.
Ser Balon gave a nod and sipped his wine. This one is not so easily seduced as was his Sworn
Brother, Hotah thought. Ser Arys was a boy, despite his years. This one is a man, and wary. The captain
had only to look at him to see that the white knight was ill at ease. This place is strange to him, and little
to his liking. Hotah could understand that. Dorne had seemed a queer place to him as well when first he
came here with his own princess, many years ago. The bearded priests had drilled him on the Common
Speech of Westeros before they sent him forth, but the Dornishmen all spoke too quickly for him to
understand. Dornish women were lewd, Dornish wine was sour, and Dornish food was full of queer hot
spices. And the Dornish sun was hotter than the pale, wan sun of Norvos, glaring down from a blue sky
day after day.
Ser Balons journey had been shorter but troubling in its own way, the captain knew. Three
knights, eight squires, twenty men-at-arms, and sundry grooms and servants had accompanied him from
Kings Landing, but once they crossed the mountains into Dorne their progress had been slowed by a
round of feasts, hunts, and celebrations at every castle that they chanced to pass. And now that they
had reached Sunspear, neither Princess Myrcella nor Ser Arys Oakheart was on hand to greet them. The
white knight knows that something is amiss, Hotah could tell, but it is more than that. Perhaps the
presence of the Sand Snakes unnerved him. If so, Obaras return to the hall must have been vinegar in
the wound. She slipped back into her place without a word, and sat there sullen and scowling, neither
smiling nor speaking.
Midnight was close at hand when Prince Doran turned to the white knight and said, Ser Balon, I
have read the letter that you brought me from our gracious queen. Might I assume that you are familiar
with its contents, ser?
Hotah saw the knight tense. I am, my lord. Her Grace informed me that I might be called upon
to escort her daughter back to Kings Landing. King Tommen has been pining for his sister and would like
Princess Myrcella to return to court for a short visit.

Princess Arianne made a sad face. Oh, but we have all grown so fond of Myrcella, ser. She and
my brother Trystane have become inseparable.
Prince Trystane would be welcome in Kings Landing as well, said Balon Swann. King Tommen
would wish to meet him, I am sure. His Grace has so few companions near his own age.
The bonds formed in boyhood can last a man for life, said Prince Doran. When Trystane and
Myrcella wed, he and Tommen will be as brothers. Queen Cersei has the right of it. The boys should
meet, become friends. Dorne will miss him, to be sure, but it is past time Trystane saw something of the
world beyond the walls of Sunspear.
I know Kings Landing will welcome him most warmly.
Why is he sweating now? the captain wondered, watching. The hall is cool enough, and he never
touched the stew.
As for the other matter that Queen Cersei raises, Prince Doran was saying, it is true, Dornes
seat upon the small council has been vacant since my brothers death, and it is past time that it was
filled again. I am flattered that Her Grace feels my counsel might be of use to her, though I wonder if I
have the strength for such a journey. Perhaps if we went by sea?
By ship? Ser Balon seemed taken aback. That  would that be safe, my prince? Autumn is a
bad season for storms, or so Ive heard, and  the pirates in the Stepstones, they 
The pirates. To be sure. You may be right, ser. Safer to return the way you came. Prince Doran
smiled pleasantly. Let us talk again on the morrow. When we reach the Water Gardens, we can tell
Myrcella. I know how excited she will be. She misses her brother too, I do not doubt.
I am eager to see her once again, said Ser Balon. And to visit your Water Gardens. Ive heard
they are very beautiful.
Beautiful and peaceful, the prince said. Cool breezes, sparkling water, and the laughter of
children. The Water Gardens are my favorite place in this world, ser. One of my ancestors had them built
to please his Targaryen bride and free her from the dust and heat of Sunspear. Daenerys was her name.
She was sister to King Daeron the Good, and it was her marriage that made Dorne part of the Seven
Kingdoms. The whole realm knew that the girl loved Daerons bastard brother Daemon Black-fyre, and
was loved by him in turn, but the king was wise enough to see that the good of thousands must come
before the desires of two, even if those two were dear to him. It was Daenerys who f illed the gardens
with laughing children. Her own children at the start, but later the sons and daughters of lords and
landed knights were brought in to be companions to the boys and girls of princely blood. And one
summers day when it was scorching hot, she took pity on the children of her grooms and cooks and
serving men and invited them to use the pools and fountains too, a tradition that has endured till this
day. The prince grasped the wheels of his chair and pushed himself from the table. But now you must
excuse me, ser. All this talk has wearied me, and we should leave at break of day. Obara, would you be

so kind as to help me to my bed? Nymeria, Tyene, come as well, and bid your old uncle a fond good
night.
So it fell to Obara Sand to roll the princes chair from Sunspears feast hall and down a long
gallery to his solar. Areo Hotah followed with her sisters, along with Princess Arianne and Ellaria Sand.
Maester Caleotte hurried behind on slippered feet, cradling the Mountains skull as if it were a child.
You cannot seriously intend to send Trystane and Myrcella to Kings Landing, Obara said as she
was pushing. Her strides were long and angry, much too fast, and the chairs big wooden wheels clacked
noisily across rough-cut stone floors. Do that, and we will never see the girl again, and your son will
spend his life a hostage to the Iron Throne.
Do you take me for a fool, Obara? The prince sighed. There is much you do not know. Things
best not discussed here, where anyone can hear. If you hold your tongue, I may enlighten you. He
winced. Slower, for the love you bear me. That last jolt sent a knife right through my knee.
Obara slowed her pace by half. What will you do, then?
Her sister Tyene gave answer. What he always does, she purred. Delay, obscure, prevaricate.
Oh, no one does that half so well as our brave uncle.
You do him wrong, said Princess Arianne. Be quiet, all of you, the prince commanded.
Not until the doors of his solar were safely closed behind them did he wheel his chair about to
face the women. Even that effort left him breathless, and the Myrish blanket that covered his legs
caught between two spokes as he rolled, so he had to clutch it to keep it from being torn away. Beneath
the coverlet, his legs were pale, soft, ghastly. Both of his knees were red and swollen, and his toes were
almost purple, twice the size they should have been. Areo Hotah had seen them a thousand times and
still found them hard to look upon.
Princess Arianne came forward. Let me help you, Father.
The prince pulled the blanket free. I can still master mine own blanket. That much at least. It
was little enough. His legs had been useless for three years, but there was still some strength in his
hands and shoulders.
Shall I fetch my prince a thimble cup of milk of the poppy? Maester Caleotte asked.
I would need a bucket, with this pain. Thank you, but no. I want my wits about me. Ill have no
more need of you tonight.
Very good, my prince. Maester Caleotte bowed, Ser Gregors head still clutched in his soft pink
hands.

Ill take that. Obara Sand plucked the skull from him and held it at arms length. What did the
Mountain look like? How do we know that this is him? They could have dipped the head in tar. Why strip
it to the bone?
Tar would have ruined the box, suggested Lady Nym, as Maester Caleotte scurried off. No
one saw the Mountain die, and no one saw his head removed. That troubles me, I confess, but what
could the bitch queen hope to accomplish by deceiving us? If Gregor Clegane is alive, soon or late the
truth will out. The man was eight feet tall, there is not another like him in all of Westeros. If any such
appears again, Cersei Lannister will be exposed as a liar before all the Seven Kingdoms. She would be an
utter fool to risk that. What could she hope to gain?
The skull is large enough, no doubt, said the prince. And we know that Oberyn wounded
Gregor grievously. Every report we have had since claims that Clegane died slowly, in great pain.
Just as Father intended, said Tyene. Sisters, truly, I know the poison Father used. If his spear
so much as broke the Mountains skin, Clegane is dead, I do not care how big he was. Doubt your little
sister if you like, but never doubt our sire.
Obara bristled. I never did and never shall. She gave the skull a mocking kiss. This is a start, Ill
grant.
A start? said Ellaria Sand, incredulous. Gods forbid. I would it were a finish. Tywin Lannister is
dead. So are Robert Baratheon, Amory Lorch, and now Gregor Clegane, all those who had a hand in
murdering Elia and her children. Even Joffrey, who was not yet born when Elia died. I saw the boy perish
with mine own eyes, clawing at his throat as he tried to draw a breath. Who else is there to kill? Do
Myrcella and Tommen need to die so the shades of Rhaenys and Aegon can be at rest? Where does it
end?
It ends in blood, as it began, said Lady Nym. It ends when Casterly Rock is cracked open, so
the sun can shine on the maggots and the worms within. It ends with the utter ruin of Tywin Lannister
and all his works.
The man died at the hand of his own son, Ellaria snapped back. What more could you wish?
I could wish that he died at my hand. Lady Nym settled in a chair, her long black braid falling
across one shoulder to her lap. She had her fathers widows peak. Beneath it her eyes were large and
lustrous. Her wine-red lips curled in a silken smile. If he had, his dying would not have been so easy.
Ser Gregor does look lonely, said Tyene, in her sweet septas voice. He would like some
company, Im certain.
Ellarias cheeks were wet with tears, her dark eyes shining. Even weeping, she has a strength in
her, the captain thought.

Oberyn wanted vengeance for Elia. Now the three of you want vengeance for him. I have four
daughters, I remind you. Your sisters. My Elia is fourteen, almost a woman. Obella is twelve, on the brink
of maiden-hood. They worship you, as Dorea and Loreza worship them. If you should die, must El and
Obella seek vengeance for you, then Dorea and Loree for them? Is that how it goes, round and round
forever? I ask again, where does it end? Ellaria Sand laid her hand on the Mountains head. I saw your
father die. Here is his killer. Can I take a skull to bed with me, to give me comfort in the night? Will it
make me laugh, write me songs, care for me when I am old and sick?
What would you have us do, my lady? asked the Lady Nym. Shall we lay down our spears and
smile, and forget all the wrongs that have been done to us?
War will come, whether we wish it or not, said Obara. A boy king sits the Iron Throne. Lord
Stannis holds the Wall and is gathering northmen to his cause. The two queens are squabbling over
Tommen like bitches with a juicy bone. The ironmen have taken the Shields and are raiding up the
Mander, deep into the heart of the Reach, which means Highgarden will be preoccupied as well. Our
enemies are in disarray. The time is ripe.
Ripe for what? To make more skulls? Ellaria Sand turned to the prince. They will not see. I can
hear no more of this.
Go back to your girls, Ellaria, the prince told her. I swear to you, no harm will come to them.
My prince. Ellaria kissed him on the brow and took her leave. Areo Hotah was sad to see her
go. She is a good woman.
When she had gone, Lady Nym said, I know she loved our father well, but it is plain she never
understood him.
The prince gave her a curious look. She understood more than you ever will, Nymeria. And she
made your father happy. In the end a gentle heart may be worth more than pride or valor. Be that as it
may, there are things Ellaria does not know and should not know. This war has already begun.
Obara laughed. Aye, our sweet Arianne has seen to that.
The princess flushed, and Hotah saw a spasm of anger pass across her fathers face. What she
did, she did as much for you as for herself. I would not be so quick to mock.
That was praise, Obara Sand insisted. Procrastinate, obscure, prevaricate, dissemble, and
delay all you like, Uncle, Ser Balon must still come face-to-face with Myrcella at the Water Gardens, and
when he does hes like to see shes short an ear. And when the girl tells him how your captain cut Arys
Oakheart from neck to groin with that steel wife of his, well 
No. Princess Arianne unfolded from the cushion where she sat and put a hand on Hotahs arm.
That wasnt how it happened, Cousin. Ser Arys was slain by Gerold Dayne.
The Sand Snakes looked at one another. Darkstar?

Darkstar did it, his little princess said. He tried to kill Princess Myrcella too. As she will tell Ser
Balon.
Nym smiled. That part at least is true.
It is all true, said the prince, with a wince of pain. Is it his gout that hurts him, or the lie? And
now Ser Gerold has fled back to High Hermit-age, beyond our reach.
Darkstar, Tyene murmured, with a giggle. Why not? It is all his doing. But will Ser Balon
believe it?
He will if he hears it from Myrcella, Arianne insisted.
Obara snorted in disbelief. She may lie today and lie tomorrow, but soon or late shell tell the
truth. If Ser Balon is allowed to carry tales back to Kings Landing, drums will sound and blood will flow.
He should not be allowed to leave.
We could kill him, to be sure, said Tyene, but then we would need to kill the rest of his party
too, even those sweet young squires. That would be  oh, so messy.
Prince Doran shut his eyes and opened them again. Hotah could see his leg trembling
underneath the blanket. If you were not my brothers daughters, I would send the three of you back to
your cells and keep you there until your bones were grey. Instead I mean to take you with us to the
Water Gardens. There are lessons there if you have the wit to see them.
Lessons? said Obara. All Ive seen are naked children.
Aye, the prince said. I told the story to Ser Balon, but not all of it. As the children splashed in
the pools, Daenerys watched from amongst the orange trees, and a realization came to her. She could
not tell the high-born from the low. Naked, they were only children. All innocent, all vulnerable, all
deserving of long life, love, protection. There is your realm, she told her son and heir, remember them,
in everything you do. My own mother said those same words to me when I was old enough to leave the
pools. It is an easy thing for a prince to call the spears, but in the end the children pay the price. For their
sake, the wise prince will wage no war without good cause, nor any war he cannot hope to win.
I am not blind, nor deaf. I know that you all believe me weak, frightened, feeble. Your father
knew me better. Oberyn was ever the viper. Deadly, dangerous, unpredictable. No man dared tread on
him. I was the grass. Pleasant, complaisant, sweet-smelling, swaying with every breeze. Who fears to
walk upon the grass? But it is the grass that hides the viper from his enemies and shelters him until he
strikes. Your father and I worked more closely than you know  but now he is gone. The question is, can
I trust his daughters to serve me in his place?
Hotah studied each of them in turn. Obara, rusted nails and boiled leather, with her angry,
close-set eyes and rat-brown hair. Nymeria, languid, elegant, olive-skinned, her long black braid bound
up in red-gold wire. Tyene, blue-eyed and blond, a child-woman with her soft hands and little giggles.

Tyene answered for the three of them. It is doing nothing that is hard, Uncle. Set a task for us,
any task, and you shall find us as leal and obedient as any prince could hope for.
That is good to hear, the prince said, but words are wind. You are my brothers daughters
and I love you, but I have learned I cannot trust you. I want your oath. Will you swear to serve me, to do
as I command?
If we must, said Lady Nym. Then swear it now, upon your fathers grave. Obaras face
darkened. If you were not my uncle
I am your uncle. And your prince. Swear, or go.
I swear, said Tyene. On my fathers grave.
I swear, said Lady Nym. By Oberyn Martell, the Red Viper of Dorne, and a better man than
you.
Aye, said Obara. Me as well. By Father. I swear.
Some of the tension went out of the prince. Hotah saw him sag back into his chair. He held out
his hand, and Princess Arianne moved to his side to hold it. Tell them, Father.
Prince Doran took a jagged breath. Dorne still has friends at court. Friends who tell us things
we were not meant to know. This invitation Cersei sent us is a ruse. Trystane is never meant to reach
Kings Landing. On the road back, somewhere in the kingswood, Ser Balons party will be attacked by
outlaws, and my son will die. I am asked to court only so that I may witness this attack with my own eyes
and thereby absolve the queen of any blame. Oh, and these outlaws? They will be shouting, Halfman,
Halfman, as they attack. Ser Balon may even catch a quick glimpse of the Imp, though no one else will.
Areo Hotah would not have believed it possible to shock the Sand Snakes. He would have been
wrong.
Seven save us, whispered Tyene. Trystane? Why?
The woman must be mad, Obara said. Hes just a boy.
This is monstrous, said Lady Nym. I would not have believed it, not of a Kingsguard knight.
They are sworn to obey, just as my captain is, the prince said. I had my doubts as well, but
you all saw how Ser Balon balked when I suggested that we go by sea. A ship would have disturbed all
the queens arrangements.
Obaras face was flushed. Give me back my spear, Uncle. Cersei sent us a head. We should send
her back a bag of them.
Prince Doran raised a hand. His knuckles were as dark as cherries and near as big. Ser Balon is a
guest beneath my roof. He has eaten of my bread and salt. I will not do him harm. No. We will travel to

the Water Gardens, where he will hear Myrcellas story and send a raven to his queen. The girl will ask
him to hunt down the man who hurt her. If he is the man I judge, Swann will not be able to refuse.
Obara, you will lead him to High Hermit-age to beard Darkstar in his den. The time is not yet come for
Dorne to openly defy the Iron Throne, so we must needs return Myrcella to her mother, but I will not be
accompanying her. That task will be yours, Nymeria. The Lannisters will not like it, no more than they
liked it when I sent them Oberyn, but they dare not refuse. We need a voice in council, an ear at court.
Be careful, though. Kings Landing is a pit of snakes.
Lady Nym smiled. Why, Uncle, I love snakes.
And what of me? asked Tyene. Your mother was a septa. Oberyn once told me that she read
to you in the cradle from the Seven-Pointed Star. I want you in Kings Landing too, but on the other hill.
The Swords and the Stars have been re-formed, and this new High Septon is not the puppet that the
others were. Try and get close to him.
Why not? White suits my coloring. I look so  pure.
Good, the prince said, good. He hesitated. If  if certain things should come to pass, I will
send word to each of you. Things can change quickly in the game of thrones.
I know you will not fail us, cousins. Arianne went to each of them in turn, took their hands,
kissed them lightly on the lips. Obara, so fierce. Nymeria, my sister. Tyene, sweetling. I love you all. The
sun of Dorne goes with you.
Unbowed, unbent, unbroken, the Sand Snakes said, together. Princess Arianne lingered when
her cousins had departed. Areo Hotah remained as well, as was his place.
They are their fathers daughters, the prince said.
The little princess smiled. Three Oberyns, with teats.
Prince Doran laughed. It had been so long since Hotah last heard him laugh, he had almost
forgotten what it sounded like.
I still say it should be me who goes to Kings Landing, not Lady Nym, Arianne said.
It is too dangerous. You are my heir, the future of Dorne. Your place is by my side. Soon
enough, youll have another task.
That last part, about the message. Have you had tidings?
Prince Doran shared his secret smile with her. From Lys. A great fleet has put in there to take
on water. Volantene ships chiefly, carrying an army. No word as to who they are, or where they might
be bound. There was talk of elephants.
No dragons?

Elephants. Easy enough to hide a young dragon in a big cogs hold, though. Daenerys is most
vulnerable at sea. If I were her, I would keep myself and my intentions hidden as long as I could, so I
might take Kings Landing unawares.
Do you think that Quentyn will be with them?
He could be. Or not. We will know by where they land if Westeros is indeed their destination.
Quentyn will bring her up the Greenblood if he can. But it does no good to speak of it. Kiss me. We leave
for the Water Gardens at first light.
We may depart by midday, then, Hotah thought.
Later, when Arianne had gone, he put down his longaxe and lifted Prince Doran into his bed.
Until the Mountain crushed my brothers skull, no Dornishmen had died in this War of the Five Kings,
the prince murmured softly, as Hotah pulled a blanket over him. Tell me, Captain, is that my shame or
my glory?
That is not for me to say, my prince. Serve. Protect. Obey. Simple vows for simple men. That
was all he knew.
JON
Val waited by the gate in the predawn cold, wrapped up in a bearskin cloak so large it might well
have fit Sam. Beside her was a garron, saddled and bridled, a shaggy grey with one white eye. Mully and
Dolorous Edd stood with her, a pair of unlikely guards. Their breath frosted in the cold black air.
You gave her a blind horse? Jon said, incredulous. Hes only half-blind, mlord, offered Mully.
Elsewise hes sound enough. He patted the garron on the neck.
The horse may be half-blind, but I am not, said Val. I know where I must go.
My lady, you do not have to do this. The risk
is mine, Lord Snow. And I am no southron lady but a woman of the free folk. I know the
forest better than all your black-cloaked rangers. It holds no ghosts for me.
I hope not. Jon was counting on that, trusting that Val could succeed where Black Jack Bulwer
and his companions had failed. She need fear no harm from the free folk, he hoped  but both of them
knew too well that wildlings were not the only ones waiting in the woods. You have sufficient food?
Hard bread, hard cheese, oat cakes, salt cod, salt beef, salt mutton, and a skin of sweet wine to
rinse all that salt out of my mouth. I will not die of hunger.
Then its time you were away.

You have my word, Lord Snow. I will return, with Tormund or without him. Val glanced at the
sky. The moon was but half-full. Look for me on the first day of the full moon.
I will. Do not fail me, he thought, or Stannis will have my head. Do I have your word that you
will keep our princess closely? the king had said, and Jon had promised that he would. Val is no
princess, though. I told him that half a hundred times. It was a feeble sort of evasion, a sad rag wrapped
around his wounded word. His father would never have approved. I am the sword that guards the realm
of men, Jon reminded himself, and in the end, that must be worth more than one mans honor.
The road beneath the Wall was as dark and cold as the belly of an ice dragon and as twisty as a
serpent. Dolorous Edd led them through with a torch in hand. Mully had the keys for the three gates,
where bars of black iron as thick as a mans arm closed off the passage. Spearmen at each gate knuckled
their foreheads at Jon Snow but stared openly at Val and her garron.
When they emerged north of the Wall, through a thick door made of freshly hewn green wood,
the wildling princess paused for a moment to gaze out across the snow-covered field where King Stannis
had won his battle. Beyond, the haunted forest waited, dark and silent. The light of the half-moon
turned Vals honey-blond hair a pale silver and left her cheeks as white as snow. She took a deep breath.
The air tastes sweet.
My tongue is too numb to tell. All I can taste is cold.
Cold? Val laughed lightly. No. When it is cold it will hurt to breathe. When the Others
come 
The thought was a disquieting one. Six of the rangers Jon had sent out were still missing. It is too
soon. They may yet be back. But another part of him insisted, They are dead, every man of them. You
sent them out to die, and you are doing the same to Val. Tell Tormund what Ive said.
He may not heed your words, but he will hear them. Val kissed him lightly on the cheek. You
have my thanks, Lord Snow. For the half-blind horse, the salt cod, the free air. For hope.
Their breath mingled, a white mist in the air. Jon Snow drew back and said, The only thanks I
want is
Tormund Giantsbane. Aye. Val pulled up the hood of her bearskin. The brown pelt was well
salted with grey. Before I go, one question. Did you kill Jarl, my lord?
The Wall killed Jarl.
So Id heard. But I had to be sure.
You have my word. I did not kill him. Though I might have if things had gone otherwise.
This is farewell, then, she said, almost playfully.

Jon Snow was in no mood for it. It is too cold and dark to play, and the hour is too late. Only for
a time. You will return. For the boy, if for no other reason.
Crasters son? Val shrugged. He is no kin to me.
I have heard you singing to him.
I was singing to myself. Am I to blame if he listens? A faint smile brushed her lips. It makes
him laugh. Oh, very well. He is a sweet little monster.
Monster?
His milk name. I had to call him something. See that he stays safe and warm. For his mothers
sake, and mine. And keep him away from the red woman. She knows who he is. She sees things in her
fires.
Arya, he thought, hoping it was so. Ashes and cinders.
Kings and dragons.
Dragons again. For a moment Jon could almost see them too, coiling in the night, their dark
wings outlined against a sea of flame. If she knew, she would have taken the boy away from us. Dallas
boy, not your monster. A word in the kings ear would have been the end of it. And of me. Stannis
would have taken it for treason. Why let it happen if she knew?
Because it suited her. Fire is a fickle thing. No one knows which way a flame will go. Val put a
foot into a stirrup, swung her leg over her horses back, and looked down from the saddle. Do you
remember what my sister told you?
Yes. A sword without a hilt, with no safe way to hold it. But Melisandre had the right of it.
Even a sword without a hilt is better than an empty hand when foes are all around you.
Good. Val wheeled the garron toward the north. The first night of the full moon, then. Jon
watched her ride away wondering if he would ever see her face again. I am no southron lady, he could
hear her say, but a woman of the free folk.
I dont care what she says, muttered Dolorous Edd, as Val vanished behind a stand of soldier
pines. The air is so cold it hurts to breathe. I would stop, but that would hurt worse. He rubbed his
hands together. This is going to end badly.
You say that of everything.
Aye, mlord. Usually Im right.
Mully cleared his throat. Mlord? The wildling princess, letting her go, the men may say

that I am half a wildling myself, a turncloak who means to sell the realm to our raiders,
cannibals, and giants. Jon did not need to stare into a fire to know what was being said of him. The
worst part was, they were not wrong, not wholly. Words are wind, and the wind is always blowing at
the Wall. Come.
It was still dark when Jon returned to his chambers behind the armory. Ghost was not yet back,
he saw. Still hunting. The big white direwolf was gone more oft than not of late, ranging farther and
farther in search of prey. Between the men of the Watch and the wildlings down in Moles Town, the
hills and fields near Castle Black had been hunted clean, and there had been little enough game to begin
with. Winter is coming, Jon reflected. And soon, too soon. He wondered if they would ever see a spring.
Dolorous Edd made the trek to the kitchens and soon was back with a tankard of brown ale and
a covered platter. Under the lid Jon discovered three ducks eggs fried in drippings, a strip of bacon, two
sausages, a blood pudding, and half a loaf of bread still warm from the oven. He ate the bread and half
an egg. He would have eaten the bacon too, but the raven made off with it before he had the chance.
Thief, Jon said, as the bird flapped up to the lintel above the door to devour its prize.
Thief, the raven agreed.
Jon tried a bite of sausage. He was washing the taste from his mouth with a sip of ale when Edd
returned to tell him Bowen Marsh was without. Othells with him, and Septon Cellador.
That was quick. He wondered who was telling tales and if there was more than one. Send them
in.
Aye, mlord. Youll want to watch your sausages with this lot, though. They have a hungry look
about them.
Hungry was not the word Jon would have used. Septon Cellador appeared confused and groggy
and in dire need of some scales from the dragon that had flamed him, whilst First Builder Othell Yarwyck
looked as if he had swallowed something he could not quite digest. Bowen Marsh was angry. Jon could
see it in his eyes, the tightness around his mouth, the flush to those round cheeks. That red is not from
cold. Please sit, he said. May I offer you food or drink?
We broke our fast in the commons, said Marsh. I could do with more. Yarwyck eased himself
down onto a chair. Good of you to offer.
Perhaps some wine? said Septon Cellador. Corn, screamed the raven from the lintel. Corn,
corn.
Wine for the septon and a plate for our First Builder, Jon told Dolorous Edd. Nothing for the
bird. He turned back to his visitors. Youre here about Val.
And other matters, said Bowen Marsh. The men have concerns, my lord.

And who is it who appointed you to speak for them? As do I. Othell, how goes the work at the
Nightfort? I have had a letter from Ser Axell Florent, who styles himself the Queens Hand. He tells me
that Queen Selyse is not pleased with her quarters at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea and wishes to move into her
husbands new seat at once. Will that be possible?
Yarwyck shrugged. Weve got most of the keep restored and put a roof back on the kitchens.
Shed need food and furnishings and firewood, mind you, but it might serve. Not so many comforts as
Eastwatch, to be sure. And a long way from the ships, should Her Grace wish to leave us, but  aye, she
could live there, though it will be years before the place looks a proper castle. Sooner if I had more
builders.
I could offer you a giant.
That gave Othell a start. The monster in the yard?
His name is Wun Weg Wun Dar Wun, Leathers tells me. A lot to wrap a tongue around, I know.
Leathers calls him Wun Wun, and that seems to serve. Wun Wun was very little like the giants in Old
Nans tales, those huge savage creatures who mixed blood into their morning porridge and devoured
whole bulls, hair and hide and horns. This giant ate no meat at all, though he was a holy terror when
served a basket of roots, crunching onions and turnips and even raw hard neeps between his big square
teeth. Hes a willing worker, though getting him to understand what you want is not always easy. He
speaks the Old Tongue after a fashion, but nothing of the Common. Tireless, though, and his strength is
prodigious. He could do the work of a dozen men.
I  my lord, the men would never  giants eat human flesh, I think  no, my lord, I thank you,
but I do not have the men to watch over such a creature, he 
Jon Snow was unsurprised. As you wish. We will keep the giant here. Truth be told, he would
have been loath to part with Wun Wun. You know nothing, Jon Snow, Ygritte might say, but Jon spoke
with the giant whenever he could, through Leathers or one of the free folk they had brought back from
the grove, and was learning much and more about his people and their history. He only wished that Sam
were here to write the stories down.
That was not to say that he was blind to the danger Wun Wun represented. The giant would lash
out violently when threatened, and those huge hands were strong enough to rip a man apart. He
reminded Jon of Hodor. Hodor twice as big, twice as strong, and half as clever. Theres a thought to
sober even Septon Cellador. But if Tormund has giants with him, Wun Weg Wun Dar Wun may help us
treat with them.
Mormonts raven muttered his annoyance as the door opened beneath him, heralding the
return of Dolorous Edd with a flagon of wine and a plate of eggs and sausages. Bowen Marsh waited
with obvious impatience as Edd poured, resuming only when he left again. Tollett is a good man, and
well liked, and Iron Emmett has been a fine master-at-arms, he said then. Yet the talk is that you mean
to send them away.

We need good men at Long Barrow.
Whores Hole, the men have started calling it, said Marsh, but be that as it may. Is it true that
you mean to replace Emmett with this savage Leathers as our master-at-arms? That is an office most oft
reserved for knights, or rangers at the least.
Leathers is savage, Jon agreed mildly. I can attest to that. Ive tried him in the practice yard.
Hes as dangerous with a stone axe as most knights are with castle-forged steel. I grant you, he is not as
patient as Id like, and some of the boys are terrified of him  but thats not all for the bad. One day
theyll find themselves in a real fight, and a certain familiarity with terror will serve them well.
Hes a wildling.
He was, until he said the words. Now he is our brother. One who can teach the boys more than
swordcraft. It would not hurt them to learn a few words of the Old Tongue and something of the ways of
the free folk.
Free, the raven muttered. Corn. King.
The men do not trust him.
Which men? Jon might have asked. How many? But that would lead him down a road he did not
mean to ride. I am sorry to hear that. Is there more?
Septon Cellador spoke up. This boy Satin. Its said you mean to make him your steward and
squire, in Tolletts place. My lord, the boys a whore  a  dare I say  a painted catamite from the
brothels of Old-town.
And you are a drunk. What he was in Oldtown is none of our concern. Hes quick to learn and
very clever. The other recruits started out despising him, but he won them over and made friends of
them all. Hes fearless in a fight and can even read and write after a fashion. He should be capable of
fetching me my meals and saddling my horse, dont you think?
Most like, said Bowen Marsh, stony-faced, but the men do not like it. Traditionally the lord
commanders squires are lads of good birth being groomed for command. Does my lord believe the men
of the Nights Watch would ever follow a whore into battle?
Jons temper flashed. They have followed worse. The Old Bear left a few cautionary notes
about certain of the men, for his successor. We have a cook at the Shadow Tower who was fond of
raping septas. He burned a seven-pointed star into his flesh for every one he claimed. His left arm is
stars from wrist to elbow, and stars mark his calves as well. At Eastwatch we have a man who set his
fathers house afire and barred the door. His entire family burned to death, all nine. Whatever Satin may
have done in Oldtown, he is our brother now, and he will be my squire.
Septon Cellador drank some wine. Othell Yarwyck stabbed a sausage with his dagger. Bower
Marsh sat red-faced. The raven flapped its wings and said, Corn, corn, kill. Finally the Lord Steward

cleared his throat. Your lordship knows best, I am sure. Might I ask about these corpses in the ice cells?
They make the men uneasy. And to keep them under guard? Surely that is a waste of two good men,
unless you fear that they 
 will rise? I pray they do.
Septon Cellador paled. Seven save us. Wine dribbled down his chin in a red line. Lord
Commander, wights are monstrous, unnatural creatures. Abominations before the eyes of the gods. You
 you cannot mean to try to talk with them?
Can they talk? asked Jon Snow. I think not, but I cannot claim to know. Monsters they may
be, but they were men before they died. How much remains? The one I slew was intent on killing Lord
Commander Mormont. Plainly it remembered who he was and where to find him. Maester Aemon
would have grasped his purpose, Jon did not doubt; Sam Tarly would have been terrified, but he would
have understood as well. My lord father used to tell me that a man must know his enemies. We
understand little of the wights and less about the Others. We need to learn.
That answer did not please them. Septon Cellador fingered the crystal that hung about his neck
and said, I think this most unwise, Lord Snow. I shall pray to the Crone to lift her shining lamp and lead
you down the path of wisdom.
Jon Snows patience was exhausted. We could all do with a bit more wisdom, I am sure. You
know nothing, Jon Snow. Now, shall we speak of Val?
It is true, then? said Marsh. You have released her.
Beyond the Wall.
Septon Cellador sucked in his breath. The kings prize. His Grace will be most wroth to find her
gone.
Val will return. Before Stannis, if the gods are good. How can you know that? demanded
Bowen Marsh. She said she would.
And if she lied? If she meets with misadventure?
Why, then, you may have a chance to choose a lord commander more to your liking. Until such
time, I fear youll still need to suffer me. Jon took a swallow of ale. I sent her to find Tormund
Giantsbane and bring him my offer.
If we may know, what offer is this?
The same offer I made at Moles Town. Food and shelter and peace, if he will join his strength
to ours, fight our common enemy, help us hold the Wall.
Bowen Marsh did not appear surprised. You mean to let him pass. His voice suggested he had
known all along. To open the gates for him and his followers. Hundreds, thousands.

If he has that many left.
Septon Cellador made the sign of the star. Othell Yarwyck grunted. Bowen Marsh said, Some
might call this treason. These are wildlings. Savages, raiders, rapers, more beast than man.
Tormund is none of those things, said Jon, no more than Mance Rayder. But even if every
word you said was true, they are still men, Bowen. Living men, human as you and me. Winter is coming,
my lords, and when it does, we living men will need to stand together against the dead.
Snow, screamed Lord Mormonts raven. Snow, Snow.
Jon ignored him. We have been questioning the wildlings we brought back from the grove.
Several of them told an interesting tale, of a woods witch called Mother Mole.
Mother Mole? said Bowen Marsh. An unlikely name.
Supposedly she made her home in a burrow beneath a hollow tree. Whatever the truth of that,
she had a vision of a fleet of ships arriving to carry the free folk to safety across the narrow sea.
Thousands of those who fled the battle were desperate enough to believe her. Mother Mole has led
them all to Hardhome, there to pray and await salvation from across the sea.
Othell Yarwyck scowled. Im no ranger, but  Hardhome is an un-holy place, its said. Cursed.
Even your uncle used to say as much, Lord Snow. Why would they go there?
Jon had a map before him on the table. He turned it so they could see. Hardhome sits on a
sheltered bay and has a natural harbor deep enough for the biggest ships afloat. Wood and stone are
plentiful near there. The waters teem with fish, and there are colonies of seals and sea cows close at
hand.
All thats true, I dont doubt, said Yarwyck, but its not a place Id want to spend a night. You
know the tale.
He did. Hardhome had been halfway toward becoming a town, the only true town north of the
Wall, until the night six hundred years ago when hell had swallowed it. Its people had been carried off
into slavery or slaughtered for meat, depending on which version of the tale you believed, their homes
and halls consumed in a conflagration that burned so hot that watchers on the Wall far to the south had
thought the sun was rising in the north. Afterward ashes rained down on haunted forest and Shivering
Sea alike for almost half a year. Traders reported finding only nightmarish devastation where Hardhome
had stood, a landscape of charred trees and burned bones, waters choked with swollen corpses,
blood-chilling shrieks echoing from the cave mouths that pocked the great cliff that loomed above the
settlement.
Six centuries had come and gone since that night, but Hardhome was still shunned. The wild had
reclaimed the site, Jon had been told, but rangers claimed that the overgrown ruins were haunted by
ghouls and demons and burning ghosts with an unhealthy taste for blood. It is not the sort of refuge Id

chose either, Jon said, but Mother Mole was heard to preach that the free folk would find salvation
where once they found damnation.
Septon Cellador pursed his lips. Salvation can be found only through the Seven. This witch has
doomed them all.
And saved the Wall, mayhaps, said Bowen Marsh. These are enemies we speak of. Let them
pray amongst the ruins, and if their gods send ships to carry them off to a better world, well and good.
In this world I have no food to feed them.
Jon flexed the fingers of his sword hand. Cotter Pykes galleys sail past Hardhome from time to
time. He tells me there is no shelter there but the caves. The screaming caves, his men call them.
Mother Mole and those who followed her will perish there, of cold and starvation. Hundreds of them.
Thousands.
Thousands of enemies. Thousands of wildlings.
Thousands of people, Jon thought. Men, women, children. Anger rose inside him, but when he
spoke his voice was quiet and cold. Are you so blind, or is it that you do not wish to see? What do you
think will happen when all these enemies are dead?
Above the door the raven muttered, Dead, dead, dead.
Let me tell you what will happen, Jon said. The dead will rise again, in their hundreds and
their thousands. They will rise as wights, with black hands and pale blue eyes, and they will come for us.
He pushed himself to his feet, the fingers of his sword hand opening and closing. You have my leave to
go.
Septon Cellador rose grey-faced and sweating, Othell Yarwyck stiffly, Bowen Marsh tight-lipped
and pale. Thank you for your time, Lord Snow. They left without another word.
TYRION
The sow had a sweeter temper than some horses he had ridden. Patient and sure-footed, she
accepted Tyrion with hardly a squeal when he clambered onto her back, and remained motionless as he
reached for shield and lance. Yet when he gathered up her reins and pressed his feet into her side, she
moved at once. Her name was Pretty, short for Pretty Pig, and she had been trained to saddle and bridle
since she was a piglet.
The painted wooden armor clattered as Pretty trotted across the deck. Tyrions armpits were
prickly with perspiration, and a bead of sweat was trickling down his scar beneath the oversized,
ill-fitting helm, yet for one absurd moment he felt almost like Jaime, riding out onto a tourney field with
lance in hand, his golden armor flashing in the sun.

When the laughter began, the dream dissolved. He was no champion, just a dwarf on a pig
clutching a stick, capering for the amusement of some restless rum-soaked sailors in hopes of
sweetening their mood. Somewhere down in hell his father was seething and Joffrey was chuckling.
Tyrion could feel their cold dead eyes watching this mummers face, as avid as the crew of the Selaesori
Qhoran.
And now here came his foe. Penny rode her big grey dog, her striped lance waving drunkenly as
the beast bounded across the deck. Her shield and armor had been painted red, though the paint was
chipped and fading; his own armor was blue. Not mine. Groats. Never mine, I pray.
Tyrion kicked at Prettys haunches to speed her to a charge as the sailors urged him on with
hoots and shouts. Whether they were shouting encouragement or mocking him he could not have said
for certain, though he had a fair notion. Why did I ever allow myself to be talked into this farce?
He knew the answer, though. For twelve days now the ship had floated becalmed in the Gulf of
Grief. The mood of the crew was ugly, and like to turn uglier when their daily rum ration went dry. There
were only so many hours a man could devote to mending sails, caulking leaks, and fishing. Jorah
Mormont had heard the muttering about how dwarf luck had failed them. Whilst the ships cook still
gave Tyrions head a rub from time to time, in hopes that it might stir a wind, the rest had taken to
giving him venomous looks whenever he crossed their paths. Pennys lot was even worse, since the cook
had put about the notion that squeezing a dwarf girls breast might be just the thing to win their luck
back. He had also started referring to Pretty Pig as Bacon, a jape that had seemed much funnier when
Tyrion had made it.
We have to make them laugh, Penny had said, pleading. We have to make them like us. If we
give them a show, it will help them forget. Please, mlord. And somehow, somewise, someway he had
consented. It must have been the rum. The captains wine had been the first thing to run out. You could
get drunk much quicker on rum than on wine, Tyrion Lannister had discovered.
So he found himself clad in Groats painted wooden armor, astride Groats sow, whilst Groats
sister instructed him in the finer points of the mummers joust that had been their bread and salt. It had
a certain delicious irony to it, considering that Tyrion had almost lost his head once by refusing to mount
the dog for his nephews twisted amusement. Yet somehow he found it difficult to appreciate the
humor of it all from sowback.
Pennys lance descended just in time for its blunted point to brush his shoulder; his own lance
wobbled as he brought it down and banged it noisily off a corner of her shield. She kept her seat. He lost
his. But then, he was supposed to.
Easy as falling off a pig  though falling off this particular pig was harder than it looked. Tyrion
curled into a ball as he dropped, remembering his lesson, but even so, he hit the deck with a solid thump
and bit his tongue so hard he tasted blood. He felt as if he were twelve again, cartwheeling across the
supper table in Casterly Rocks great hall. Back then his uncle Gerion had been on hand to praise his
efforts, in place of surly sailors. Their laughter seemed sparse and strained compared to the great gales

that had greeted Groats and Pennys antics at Joffreys wedding feast, and some hissed at him in anger.
 No-Nose, you ride same way you look, ugly, one man shouted from the sterncastle. Must have no
balls, let girl beat you. He wagered coin on me, Tyrion decided. He let the insult wash right over him. He
had heard worse in his time.
The wooden armor made rising awkward. He found himself flailing like a turtle on its back. That,
at least, set a few of the sailors to laughing. A shame I did not break my leg, that would have left them
howling. And if they had been in that privy when I shot my father through the bowels, they might have
laughed hard enough to shit their breeches right along with him. But anything to keep the bloody
bastards sweet.
Jorah Mormont finally took pity on Tyrions struggles and pulled him to his feet. You looked a
fool.
That was the intent. It is hard to look a hero when mounted on a pig.
That must be why I stay off pigs.
Tyrion unbuckled his helm, twisted it off, and spat a gobbet of bloody pink phlegm over the side.
It feels as though I bit through half my tongue.
Next time bite harder. Ser Jorah shrugged. Truth be told, Ive seen worse jousters.
Was that praise? I fell off the bloody pig and bit my tongue. What could possibly be worse than
that?
Getting a splinter through your eye and dying.
Penny had vaulted off her dog, a big grey brute called Crunch. The thing is not to joust well,
Hugor. She was always careful to call him Hugor where anyone might hear. The thing is to make them
laugh and throw coins.
Poor payment for the blood and bruises, Tyrion thought, but he kept that to himself as well. We
failed at that as well. No one threw coins. Not a penny, not a groat.
They will when we get better. Penny pulled off her helm. Mouse-brown hair spilled down to
her ears. Her eyes were brown too, beneath a heavy shelf of brow, her cheeks smooth and flushed. She
pulled some acorns from a leather bag for Pretty Pig. The sow ate them from her hand, squealing
happily. When we perform for Queen Daenerys the silver will rain down, youll see.
Some of the sailors were shouting at them and slamming their heels against the deck,
demanding another tilt. The ships cook was the loudest, as always. Tyrion had learned to despise that
man, even if he was the only half-decent cyvasse player on the cog. You see, they liked us, Penny said,
with a hopeful little smile. Shall we go again, Hugor?

He was on the point of refusing when a shout from one of the mates spared him the necessity. It
was midmorning, and the captain wanted the boats out again. The cogs huge striped sail hung limply
from her mast, as it had for days, but he was hopeful that they could find a wind somewhere to the
north. That meant rowing. The boats were small, however, and the cog was large; towing it was hot,
sweaty, exhausting work that left the hands blistered and the back aching, and accomplished nothing.
The crew hated it. Tyrion could not blame them. The widow should have put us on a galley, he
muttered sourly. If someone could help me out of these bloody planks, I would be grateful. I think I
may have a splinter through my crotch.
Mormont did the duty, albeit with poor grace. Penny collected her dog and pig and led them
both below. You might want to tell your lady to keep her door closed and barred when shes inside,
Ser Jorah said as he was undoing the buckles on the straps that joined the wooden breastplate to the
backplate. Im hearing too much talk about ribs and hams and bacon.
That pig is half her livelihood.
A Ghiscari crew would eat the dog as well. Mormont pulled the breastplate and backplate
apart. Just tell her.
As you wish. His tunic was soaked with sweat and clinging to his chest. Tyrion plucked at it,
wishing for a bit of breeze. The wooden armor was as hot and heavy as it was uncomfortable. Half of it
looked to be old paint, layer on layer on layer of it, from a hundred past repaintings. At Joffreys
wedding feast, he recalled, one rider had displayed the direwolf of Robb Stark, the other the arms and
colors of Stannis Baratheon. We will need both animals if were to tilt for Queen Daenerys, he said. If
the sailors took it in their heads to butcher Pretty Pig, neither he nor Penny could hope to stop them 
but Ser Jorahs longsword might give them pause, at least.
Is that how you hope to keep your head, Imp?
Ser Imp, if you please. And yes. Once Her Grace knows my true worth, shell cherish me. I am a
lovable little fellow, after all, and I know many useful things about my kin. But until such time I had best
keep her amused.
Caper as you like, it wont wash out your crimes. Daenerys Targaryen is no silly child to be
diverted by japes and tumbles. She will deal with you justly.
Oh, I hope not. Tyrion studied Mormont with his mismatched eyes. And how will she welcome
you, this just queen? A warm embrace, a girlish titter, a headsmans axe? He grinned at the knights
obvious discomfit. Did you truly expect me to believe you were about the queens business in that
whorehouse? Defending her from half a world away? Or could it be that you were running, that your
dragon queen sent you from her side? But why would she  oh, wait, you were spying on her. Tyrion
made a clucking sound. You hope to buy your way back into her favor by presenting her with me. An
ill-considered scheme, Id say. One might even say an act of drunken desperation. Perhaps if I were
Jaime  but Jaime killed her father, I only killed my own. You think Daenerys will execute me and pardon

you, but the reverse is just as likely. Maybe you should hop up on that pig, Ser Jorah. Put on a suit of iron
motley, like Florian the
The blow the big knight gave him cracked his head around and knocked him sideways, so hard
that his head bounced off the deck. Blood filled his mouth as he staggered back onto one knee. He spat
out a broken tooth. Growing prettier every day, but I do believe I poked a wound. Did the dwarf say
something to offend you, ser? Tyrion asked innocently, wiping bubbles of blood off his broken lip with
the back of his hand.
I am sick of your mouth, dwarf, said Mormont. You still have a few teeth left. If you want to
keep them, stay away from me for the rest of this voyage.
That could be difficult. We share a cabin.
You can find somewhere else to sleep. Down in the hold, up on deck, it makes no matter. Just
keep out of my sight.
Tyrion pulled himself back to his feet. As you wish, he answered, through a mouthful of blood,
but the big knight was already gone, his boots pounding on the deckboards.
Below, in the galley, Tyrion was rinsing out his mouth with rum and water and wincing at the
sting when Penny found him. I heard what happened. Oh, are you hurt?
He shrugged. A bit of blood and a broken tooth. But I believe I hurt him more. And him a
knight. Sad to say, I would not count on Ser Jorah should we need protection.
What did you do? Oh, your lip is bleeding. She slipped a square from her sleeve and dabbed at
it. What did you say?
A few truths Ser Bezoar did not care to hear.
You mustnt mock him. Dont you know anything? You cant talk that way to a big person. They
can hurt you. Ser Jorah could have tossed you in the sea. The sailors would have laughed to see you
drown. You have to be careful around big people. Be jolly and playful with them, keep them smiling,
make them laugh, thats what my father always said. Didnt your father ever tell you how to act with big
people?
My father called them smallfolk, said Tyrion, and he was not what youd call a jolly man. He
took another sip of watered rum, sloshed it around his mouth, spat it out. Still, I take your point. I have
a deal to learn about being a dwarf. Perhaps you will be good enough to teach me, in between the
jousting and the pig-riding.
I will, mlord. Gladly. But  what were these truths? Why did Ser Jorah hit you so hard?

Why, for love. The same reason that I stewed that singer. He thought of Shae and the look in
her eyes as he tightened the chain about her throat, twisting it in his fist. A chain of golden hands. For
hands of gold are always gold, but a womans hands are warm. Are you a maid, Penny?
She blushed. Yes. Of course. Who would have
Stay that way. Love is madness, and lust is poison. Keep your maiden-head. Youll be happier
for it, and youre less like to find yourself in some dingy brothel on the Rhoyne with a whore who looks a
bit like your lost love. Or chasing across half the world, hoping to find wherever whores go. Ser Jorah
dreams of rescuing his dragon queen and basking in her gratitude, but I know a thing or two about the
gratitude of kings, and Id sooner have a palace in Valyria. He broke off suddenly. Did you feel that?
The ship moved.
It did. Pennys face lit up with joy. Were moving again. The wind  She rushed to the door.
I want to see. Come, Ill race you up. Off she went.
She is young, Tyrion had to remind himself, as Penny scrambled from the galley and up the steep
wooden steps as fast as her short legs would allow. Almost a child. Still, it tickled him to see her
excitement. He followed her topside.
The sail had come to life again, billowing, emptying, then billowing again, the red stripes on the
canvas wriggling like snakes. Sailors dashed across the decks and hauled on lines as the mates bellowed
orders in the tongue of Old Volantis. The rowers in the ships boats had loosed their tow ropes and
turned back toward the cog, stroking hard. The wind was blowing from the west, swirling and gusting,
clutching at ropes and cloaks like a mischievous child. The Selaesori Qhoran was under way.
Might be well make Meereen after all, Tyrion thought.
But when he clambered up the ladder to the sterncastle and looked off from the stern, his smile
faltered. Blue sky and blue sea here, but off west  I have never seen a sky that color. A thick band of
clouds ran along the horizon. A bar sinister, he said to Penny, pointing.
What does that mean? she asked. It means some big bastard is creeping up behind us.
He was surprised to find that Moqorro and two of his fiery fingers had joined them on the
sterncastle. It was only midday, and the red priest and his men did not normally emerge till dusk. The
priest gave him a solemn nod. There you see it, Hugor Hill. Gods wroth. The Lord of Light will not be
mocked.
Tyrion had a bad feeling about this. The widow said this ship would never reach her
destination. I took that to mean that once we were out to sea beyond the reach of triarchs, the captain
would change course for Meereen. Or perhaps that you would seize the ship with your Fiery Hand and
take us to Daenerys. But that isnt what your high priest saw at all, is it?

No. Moqorros deep voice tolled as solemnly as a funeral bell. This is what he saw. The red
priest lifted his staff, and inclined its head toward the west.
Penny was lost. I dont understand. What does it mean?
It means we had best get below. Ser Jorah has exiled me from our cabin. Might I hide in yours
when the time comes?
Yes, she said. You would be  oh 
For the better part of three hours they ran before the wind, as the storm grew closer. The
western sky went green, then grey, then black. A wall of dark clouds loomed up behind them, churning
like a kettle of milk left on the fire too long. Tyrion and Penny watched from the forecastle, huddled by
the figurehead and holding hands, careful to stay out of the way of captain and crew.
The last storm had been thrilling, intoxicating, a sudden squall that had left him feeling cleansed
and refreshed. This one felt different right from the first. The captain sensed it too. He changed their
course to north by northeast to try and get out of the storms path.
It was a futile effort. This storm was too big. The seas around them grew rougher. The wind
began to howl. The Stinky Steward rose and fell as waves smashed against her hull. Behind them
lightning stabbed down from the sky, blinding purple bolts that danced across the sea in webs of light.
Thunder followed. The time has come to hide. Tyrion took Penny by the arm and led her belowdecks.
Pretty and Crunch were were both half-mad with fear. The dog was barking, barking, barking. He
knocked Tyrion right off his feet as they entered. The sow had been shitting everywhere. Tyrion cleaned
that up as best he could whilst Penny tried to calm the animals. Then they tied down or put away
anything that was still loose. Im frightened, Penny confessed. The cabin had begun to tilt and jump,
going this way and that as the waves hammered at the hull of the ship.
There are worse ways to die than drowning. Your brother learned that, and so did my lord father.
And Shae, that lying cunt. Hands of gold are always cold, but a womans hands are warm. We should
play a game, Tyrion suggested. That might help take our thoughts off the storm.
Not cyvasse, she said at once. Not cyvasse, Tyrion agreed, as the deck rose under him. That
would only lead to pieces flying violently across the cabin and raining down on sow and dog. When you
were a little girl, did you ever play come-into-my-castle?
No. Can you teach me?
Could he? Tyrion hesitated. Fool of a dwarf. Of course shes never played come-into-my-castle.
She never had a castle. Come-into-my-castle was a game for highborn children, one meant to teach
them courtesy, heraldry, and a thing or two about their lord fathers friends and foes. That wont  he
started. The deck gave another violent heave, slamming the two of them together. Penny gave a squeak
of fright. That game wont do, Tyrion told her, gritting his teeth. Sorry. I dont know what game

I do. Penny kissed him.
It was an awkward kiss, rushed, clumsy. But it took him utterly by surprise. His hands jerked up
and grabbed hold of her shoulders to shove her away. Instead he hesitated, then pulled her closer, gave
her a squeeze. Her lips were dry, hard, closed up tighter than a misers purse. A small mercy, thought
Tyrion. This was nothing he had wanted. He liked Penny, he pitied Penny, he even admired Penny in a
way, but he did not desire her. He had no wish to hurt her, though; the gods and his sweet sister had
given her enough pain. So he let the kiss go on, holding her gently by the shoulders. His own lips stayed
firmly shut. The Selaesori Qhoran rolled and shuddered around them.
Finally she pulled back an inch or two. Tyrion could see his own reflection shining in her eyes.
Pretty eyes, he thought, but he saw other things as well. A lot of fear, a little hope  but not a bit of lust.
She does not want me, no more than I want her.
When she lowered her head, he took her under the chin and raised it up again. We cannot play
that game, my lady. Above the thunder boomed, close at hand now.
I never meant  I never kissed a boy before, but  I only thought, what if we drown, and I 
I 
It was sweet, lied Tyrion, but I am married. She was with me at the feast, you may remember
her. Lady Sansa.
Was she your wife? She  she was very beautiful 
And false. Sansa, Shae, all my women  Tysha was the only one who ever loved me. Where do
whores go? A lovely girl, said Tyrion, and we were joined beneath the eyes of gods and men. It may
be that she is lost to me, but until I know that for a certainty I must be true to her.
I understand. Penny turned her face away from his.
My perfect woman, Tyrion thought bitterly. One still young enough to believe such blatant lies.
The hull was creaking, the deck moving, and Pretty was squealing in distress. Penny crawled
across the cabin floor on her hands and knees, wrapped her arms around the sows head, and
murmured reassurance to her. Looking at the two of them, it was hard to know who was comforting
whom. The sight was so grotesque it should have been hilarious, but Tyrion could not even find a smile.
The girl deserves better than a pig, he thought. An honest kiss, a little kindness, everyone deserves that
much, however big or small. He looked about for his wine cup, but when he found it all the rum had
spilled. Drowning is bad enough, he reflected sourly, but drowning sad and sober, thats too cruel.
In the end, they did not drown  though there were times when the prospect of a nice, peaceful
drowning had a certain appeal. The storm raged for the rest of that day and well into the night. Wet
winds howled around them and waves rose like the fists of drowned giants to smash down on their
decks. Above, they learned later, a mate and two sailors were swept overboard, the ships cook was

blinded when a kettle of hot grease flew up into his face, and the captain was thrown from the
stern-castle to the main deck so violently he broke both legs. Below, Crunch howled and barked and
snapped at Penny, and Pretty Pig began to shit again, turning the cramped, damp cabin into a sty. Tyrion
managed to avoid retching his way through all of this, chiefly thanks to the lack of wine. Penny was not
so fortunate, but he held her anyway as the ships hull creaked and groaned alarmingly around them,
like a cask about to burst.
Nearby midnight the winds finally died away, and the sea grew calm enough for Tyrion to make
his way back up onto deck. What he saw there did not reassure him. The cog was drifting on a sea of
dragonglass beneath a bowl of stars, but all around the storm raged on. East, west, north, south,
everywhere he looked, the clouds rose up like black mountains, their tumbled slopes and collossal cliffs
alive with blue and purple lightning. No rain was falling, but the decks were slick and wet underfoot.
Tyrion could hear someone screaming from below, a thin, high voice hysterical with fear. He
could hear Moqorro too. The red priest stood on the forecastle facing the storm, his staff raised above
his head as he boomed a prayer. Amidships, a dozen sailors and two of the fiery fingers were struggling
with tangled lines and sodden canvas, but whether they were trying to raise the sail again or pull it down
he never knew. Whatever they were doing, it seemed to him a very bad idea. And so it was.
The wind returned as a whispered threat, cold and damp, brushing over his cheek, flapping the
wet sail, swirling and tugging at Moqorros scarlet robes. Some instinct made Tyrion grab hold of the
nearest rail, just in time. In the space of three heartbeats the little breeze became a howling gale.
Moqorro shouted something, and green flames leapt from the dragons maw atop his staff to vanish in
the night. Then the rains came, black and blinding, and forecastle and sterncastle both vanished behind
a wall of water. Something huge flapped overhead, and Tyrion glanced up in time to see the sail taking
wing, with two men still dangling from the lines. Then he heard a crack. Oh, bloody hell, he had time to
think, that had to be the mast.
He found a line and pulled on it, fighting toward the hatch to get himself below out of the storm,
but a gust of wind knocked his feet from under him and a second slammed him into the rail and there he
clung. Rain lashed at his face, blinding him. His mouth was full of blood again. The ship groaned and
growled beneath him like a constipated fat man straining to shit.
Then the mast burst.
Tyrion never saw it, but he heard it. That cracking sound again and then a scream of tortured
wood, and suddenly the air was full of shards and splinters. One missed his eye by half an inch, a second
found his neck, a third went through his calf, boots and breeches and all. He screamed. But he held on
to the line, held on with a desperate strength he did not know he had. The widow said this ship would
never reach her destination, he remembered. Then he laughed and laughed, wild and hysterical, as
thunder boomed and timbers moaned and waves crashed all around him.
By the time the storm abated and the surviving passengers and crew came crawling back on
deck, like pale pink worms wriggling to the surface after a rain, the Selaesori Qhoran was a broken thing,

floating low in the water and listing ten degrees to port, her hull sprung in half a hundred places, her
hold awash in seawater, her mast a splintered ruin no taller than a dwarf. Even her figurehead had not
escaped; one of his arms had broken off, the one with all his scrolls. Nine men had been lost, including a
mate, two of the fiery fingers, and Moqorro himself.
Did Benerro see this in his fires? Tyrion wondered, when he realized the huge red priest was
gone. Did Moqorro?
Prophecy is like a half-trained mule, he complained to Jorah Mormont. It looks as though it
might be useful, but the moment you trust in it, it kicks you in the head. That bloody widow knew the
ship would never reach her destination, she warned us of that, said Benerro saw it in his fires, only I took
that to mean  well, what does it matter? His mouth twisted. What it really meant was that some
bloody big storm would turn our mast to kindling so we could drift aimlessly across the Gulf of Grief until
our food ran out and we started eating one another. Who do you suppose theyll carve up first  the
pig, the dog, or me?
The noisiest, Id say.
The captain died the following day, the ships cook three nights later. It was all that the
remaining crew could do to keep the wreck afloat. The mate who had assumed command reckoned that
they were somewhere off the southern end of the Isle of Cedars. When he lowered the ships boats to
tow them toward the nearest land, one sank and the men in the other cut the line and rowed off north,
abandoning the cog and all their shipmates.
Slaves, said Jorah Mormont, contemptuous.
The big knight had slept through the storm, to hear him tell it. Tyrion had his doubts, but he kept
them to himself. One day he might want to bite someone in the leg, and for that you needed teeth.
Mormont seemed content to ignore their disagreement, so Tyrion decided to pretend it had not
happened.
For nineteen days they drifted, as food and water dwindled. The sun beat down on them,
relentless. Penny huddled in her cabin with her dog and her pig, and Tyrion brought her food, limping on
his bandaged calf and sniffing at the wound by night. When he had nothing else to do, he pricked his
toes and fingers too. Ser Jorah made a point of sharpening his sword each day, honing the point until it
gleamed. The three remaining fiery fingers lit the nightfire as the sun went down, but they wore their
ornate armor as they led the crew in prayer, and their spears were close at hand. And not a single sailor
tried to rub the head of either dwarf.
Should we joust for them again? Penny asked one night. Best not, said Tyrion. That would
only serve to remind them we have a nice plump pig. Though Pretty was growing less plump with every
passing day, and Crunch was fur and bones.

That night he dreamed that he was back in Kings Landing again, a crossbow in his hand.
Wherever whores go, Lord Tywin said, but when Tyrions finger clenched and the bowstring
thrummed, it was Penny with the quarrel buried in her belly.
He woke to the sound of shouting.
The deck was moving under him, and for half a heartbeat he was so confused he thought he was
back on the Shy Maid. A whiff of pigshit brought him to his senses. The Sorrows were behind him, half a
world away, and the joys of that time as well. He remembered how sweet Le-more had looked after her
morning swims, with beads of water glistening on her naked skin, but the only maiden here was his poor
Penny, the stunted little dwarf girl.
Something was afoot, though. Tyrion slipped from the hammock, yawning, and looked about for
his boots. And mad though it was, he looked for the crossbow as well, but of course there was none
such to be found. A pity, he mused, it might have been some use when the big folk come to eat me. He
pulled his boots on and climbed on deck to see what the shouting was about. Penny was there before
him, her eyes wide with wonder. A sail, she shouted, there, there, do you see? A sail, and theyve
seen us, they have. A sail.
This time he kissed her  once on each cheek, once on the brow, and one last one on the
mouth. She was flushed and laughing by the last kiss, suddenly shy again, but it made no matter. The
other ship was closing. A big galley, he saw. Her oars left a long white wake behind her. What ship is
that? he asked Ser Jorah Mormont. Can you read her name?
I dont need to read her name. Were downwind. I can smell her. Mormont drew his sword.
Thats a slaver.
THE TURNCLOAK
The first flakes came drifting down as the sun was setting in the west. By nightfall snow was
coming down so heavily that the moon rose behind a white curtain, unseen.
The gods of the north have unleashed their wroth on Lord Stannis, Roose Bolton announced
come morning as men gathered in Winterfells Great Hall to break their fast. He is a stranger here, and
the old gods will not suffer him to live.
His men roared their approval, banging their fists on the long plank tables. Winterfell might be
ruined, but its granite walls would still keep the worst of the wind and weather at bay. They were well
stocked with food and drink; they had fires to warm them when off duty, a place to dry their clothes,
snug corners to lie down and sleep. Lord Bolton had laid by enough wood to keep the fires fed for half a
year, so the Great Hall was always warm and cozy. Stannis had none of that.

Theon Greyjoy did not join the uproar. Neither did the men of House Frey, he did not fail to
note. They are strangers here as well, he thought, watching Ser Aenys Frey and his half-brother Ser
Hosteen. Born and bred in the riverlands, the Freys had never seen a snow like this. The north has
already claimed three of their blood, Theon thought, recalling the men that Ramsay had searched for
fruitlessly, lost between White Harbor and Barrowton.
On the dais, Lord Wyman Manderly sat between a pair of his White Harbor knights, spooning
porridge into his fat face. He did not seem to be enjoying it near as much as he had the pork pies at the
wedding. Elsewhere one-armed Harwood Stout talked quietly with the cadaverous Whoresbane Umber.
Theon queued up with the other men for porridge, ladled into wooden bowls from a row of
copper kettles. The lords and knights had milk and honey and even a bit of butter to sweeten their
portions, he saw, but none of that would be offered him. His reign as prince of Winterfell had been a
brief one. He had played his part in the mummers show, giving the feigned Arya to be wed, and now he
was of no further use to Roose Bolton.
First winter I remember, the snows came over my head, said a Hornwood man in the queue
ahead of him.
Aye, but you were only three foot tall at the time, a rider from the Rills replied.
Last night, unable to sleep, Theon had found himself brooding on escape, of slipping away
unseen whilst Ramsay and his lord father had their attention elsewhere. Every gate was closed and
barred and heavily guarded, though; no one was allowed to enter or depart the castle without Lord
Boltons leave. Even if he found some secret way out, Theon would not have trusted it. He had not
forgotten Kyra and her keys. And if he did get out, where would he go? His father was dead, and his
uncles had no use for him. Pyke was lost to him. The nearest thing to a home that remained to him was
here, amongst the bones of Winterfell.
A ruined man, a ruined castle. This is my place.
He was still waiting for his porridge when Ramsay swept into the hall with his Bastards Boys,
shouting for music. Abel rubbed the sleep from his eyes, took up his lute, and launched into The
Dornishmans Wife, whilst one of his washerwomen beat time on her drum. The singer changed the
words, though. Instead of tasting a Dornishmans wife, he sang of tasting a northmans daughter.
He could lose his tongue for that, Theon thought, as his bowl was being filled. He is only a singer.
Lord Ramsay could flay the skin off both his hands, and no one would say a word. But Lord Bolton smiled
at the lyric and Ramsay laughed aloud. Then others knew that it was safe to laugh as well. Yellow Dick
found the song so funny that wine snorted out his nose.
Lady Arya was not there to share the merriment. She had not been seen outside her chambers
since her wedding night. Sour Alyn had been saying that Ramsay kept his bride naked and chained to a
bedpost, but Theon knew that was only talk. There were no chains, at least none that men could see.

Just a pair of guards outside the bedchamber, to keep the girl from wandering. And she is only naked
when she bathes.
That she did most every night, though. Lord Ramsay wanted his wife clean. She has no
handmaids, poor thing, he had said to Theon. That leaves you, Reek. Should I put you in a dress? He
laughed. Perhaps if you beg it of me. Just now, it will suffice for you to be her bath maid. I wont have
her smelling like you. So whenever Ramsay had an itch to bed his wife, it fell to Theon to borrow some
servingwomen from Lady Walda or Lady Dustin and fetch hot water from the kitchens. Though Arya
never spoke to any of them, they could not fail to see her bruises. It is her own fault. She has not pleased
him. Just be Arya, he told the girl once, as he helped her into the water. Lord Ramsay does not want
to hurt you. He only hurts us when we  when we forget. He never cut me without cause.
Theon  she whispered, weeping. Reek. He grabbed her arm and shook her. In here Im
Reek. You have to remember, Arya. But the girl was no true Stark, only a stewards whelp. Jeyne, her
name is Jeyne. She should not look to me for rescue. Theon Greyjoy might have tried to help her, once.
But Theon had been ironborn, and a braver man than Reek. Reek, Reek, it rhymes with weak.
Ramsay had a new plaything to amuse him, one with teats and a cunny  but soon Jeynes tears
would lose their savor, and Ramsay would want his Reek again. He will flay me inch by inch. When my
fingers are gone he will take my hands. After my toes, my feet. But only when I beg for it, when the pain
grows so bad that I plead for him to give me some relief. There would be no hot baths for Reek. He
would roll in shit again, forbidden to wash. The clothes he wore would turn to rags, foul and stinking,
and he would be made to wear them till they rotted. The best he could hope for was to be returned to
the kennels with Ramsays girls for company. Kyra, he remembered. The new bitch he calls Kyra.
He took his bowl to the back of the hall and found a place on an empty bench, yards away from
the nearest torch. Day or night, the benches below the salt were never less than half-full with men
drinking, dicing, talking, or sleeping in their clothes in quiet corners. Their serjeants would kick them
awake when it came their turn to shrug back into their cloaks and walk the walls. But no man of them
would welcome the company of Theon Turncloak, nor did he have much taste for theirs.
The gruel was grey and watery, and he pushed it away after his third spoonful and let it congeal
in the bowl. At the next table, men were arguing about the storm and wondering aloud how long the
snow would fall. All day and all night, might be even longer, insisted one big, black-bearded archer
with a Cerwyn axe sewn on his breast. A few of the older men spoke of other snowstorms and insisted
this was no more than a light dusting compared to what theyd seen in the winters of their youth. The
riverlanders were aghast. They have no love of snow and cold, these south-ron swords. Men entering the
hall huddled by the fires or clapped their hands together over glowing braziers as their cloaks hung
dripping from pegs inside the door.
The air was thick and smoky and a crust had formed atop his porridge when a womans voice
behind him said, Theon Greyjoy.
My name is Reek, he almost said. What do you want?

She sat down next to him, straddling the bench, and pushed a wild mop of red-brown hair out of
her eyes. Why do you eat alone, mlord? Come, rise, join the dance.
He went back to his porridge. I dont dance. The Prince of Winterfell had been a graceful
dancer, but Reek with his missing toes would be grotesque. Leave me be. I have no coin.
The woman smiled crookedly. Do you take me for a whore? She was one of the singers
washerwomen, the tall skinny one, too lean and leathery to be called pretty  though there was a time
when Theon would have tumbled her all the same, to see how it felt to have those long legs wrapped
around him. What good would coin do me here? What would I buy with it, some snow? She laughed.
You could pay me with a smile. Ive never seen you smile, not even during your sisters wedding feast.
Lady Arya is not my sister. I do not smile either, he might have told her. Ramsay hated my
smiles, so he took a hammer to my teeth. I can hardly eat. She never was my sister.
A pretty maid, though.
I was never beautiful like Sansa, but they all said I was pretty. Jeynes words seemed to echo in
his head, to the beat of the drums two of Abels other girls were pounding. Another one had pulled Little
Walder Frey up onto the table to teach him how to dance. All the men were laughing. Leave me be,
said Theon.
Am I not to mlords taste? I could send Myrtle to you if you want. Or Holly, might be youd like
her better. All the men like Holly. Theyre not my sisters neither, but theyre sweet. The woman leaned
close. Her breath smelled of wine. If you have no smile for me, tell me how you captured Winterfell.
Abel will put it in a song, and you will live forever.
As a betrayer. As Theon Turncloak.
Why not Theon the Clever? It was a daring feat, the way we heard it. How many men did you
have? A hundred? Fifty?
Fewer. It was madness.
Glorious madness. Stannis has five thousand, they say, but Abel claims ten times as many still
could not breach these walls. So how did you get in, mlord? Did you have some secret way?
I had ropes, Theon thought. I had grapnels. I had darkness on my side, and surprise. The castle
was but lightly held, and I took them unawares. But he said none of that. If Abel made a song about him,
like as not Ramsay would prick his eardrums to make certain that he never heard it.
You can trust me, mlord. Abel does. The washerwoman put her hand upon his own. His hands
were gloved in wool and leather. Hers were bare, long-fingered, rough, with nails chewed to the quick.
You never asked my name. Its Rowan.

Theon wrenched away. This was a ploy, he knew it. Ramsay sent her. Shes another of his japes,
like Kyra with the keys. A jolly jape, thats all. He wants me to run, so he can punish me.
He wanted to hit her, to smash that mocking smile off her face. He wanted to kiss her, to fuck
her right there on the table and make her cry his name. But he knew he dare not touch her, in anger or
in lust. Reek, Reek, my name is Reek. I must not forget my name. He jerked to his feet and made his way
wordlessly to the doors, limping on his maimed feet.
Outside the snow was falling still. Wet, heavy, silent, it had already begun to cover the footsteps
left by the men coming and going from the hall. The drifts came almost to the top of his boots. It will be
deeper in the wolfswood  and out on the kingsroad, where the wind is blowing, there will be no escape
from it. A battle was being fought in the yard; Ryswells pelting Barrowton boys with snowballs. Above,
he could see some squires building snowmen along the battlements. They were arming them with
spears and shields, putting iron halfhelms on their heads, and arraying them along the inner wall, a rank
of snowy sentinels. Lord Winter has joined us with his levies, one of the sentries outside the Great Hall
japed  until he saw Theons face and realized who he was talking to. Then he turned his head and spat.
Beyond the tents the big destriers of the knights from White Harbor and the Twins were
shivering in their horse lines. Ramsay had burned the stables when he sacked Winterfell, so his father
had thrown up new ones twice as large as the old, to accommodate the warhorses and palfreys of his
lords bannermen and knights. The rest of the horses were tethered in the wards. Hooded grooms
moved amongst them, covering them with blankets to keep them warm.
Theon made his way deeper into the ruined parts of the castle. As he picked through the
shattered stone that had once been Maester Luwins turret, ravens looked down from the gash in the
wall above, muttering to one another. From time to time one would let out a raucous scream. He stood
in the doorway of a bedchamber that had once been his own (ankle deep in snow that had blown in
through a shattered window), visited the ruins of Mikkens forge and Lady Catelyns sept. Beneath the
Burned Tower, he passed Rickard Ryswell nuzzling at the neck of another one of Abels washerwomen,
the plump one with the apple cheeks and pug nose. The girl was barefoot in the snow, bundled up in a
fur cloak. He thought she might be naked underneath. When she saw him, she said something to
Ryswell that made him laugh aloud.
Theon trudged away from them. There was a stair beyond the mews, seldom used; it was there
his feet took him. The steps were steep and treacherous. He climbed carefully and found himself alone
on the battlements of the inner wall, well away from the squires and their snowmen. No one had given
him freedom of the castle, but no one had denied it to him either. He could go where he would within
the walls.
Winterfells inner wall was the older and taller of the two, its ancient grey crenellations rising
one hundred feet high, with square towers at every corner. The outer wall, raised many centuries later,
was twenty feet lower, but thicker and in better repair, boasting octagonal towers in place of square
ones. Between the two walls was the moat, deep and wide  and frozen. Drifts of snow had begun to

creep across its icy surface. Snow was building up along the battlements too, filling the gaps between
the merlons and putting pale, soft caps on every tower top.
Beyond the walls, as far as he could see, the world was turning white. The woods, the fields, the
kingsroadthe snows were covering all of them beneath a pale soft mantle, burying the remnants of
the winter town, hiding the blackened walls Ramsays men had left behind when they put the houses to
the torch. The wounds Snow made, snow conceals, but that was wrong. Ramsay was a Bolton now, not a
Snow, never a Snow.
Farther off, the rutted kingsroad had vanished, lost amidst the fields and rolling hills, all one vast
expanse of white. And still the snow was falling, drifting down in silence from a windless sky. Stannis
Baratheon is out there somewhere, freezing. Would Lord Stannis try to take Winterfell by storm? If he
does, his cause is doomed. The castle was too strong. Even with the moat frozen over, Winterfells
defenses remained formidable. Theon had captured the castle by stealth, sending his best men to scale
the walls and swim the moat under the cover of darkness. The defenders had not even known they were
under attack until it was too late. No such subterfuge was possible for Stannis.
He might prefer to cut the castle off from the outside world and starve out its defenders.
Winterfells storerooms and cellar vaults were empty. A long supply train had come with Bolton and his
friends of Frey up through the Neck, Lady Dustin had brought food and fodder from Barrowton, and
Lord Manderly had arrived well provisioned from White Harbor  but the host was large. With so many
mouths to feed, their stores could not last for long. Lord Stannis and his men will be just as hungry,
though. And cold and footsore as well, in no condition for a fight  but the storm will make them
desperate to get inside the castle.
Snow was falling on the godswood too, melting when it touched the ground. Beneath the
white-cloaked trees the earth had turned to mud. Tendrils of mist hung in the air like ghostly ribbons.
Why did I come here? These are not my gods. This is not my place. The heart tree stood before him, a
pale giant with a carved face and leaves like bloody hands.
A thin film of ice covered the surface of the pool beneath the weir-wood. Theon sank to his
knees beside it. Please, he murmured through his broken teeth, I never meant  The words caught
in his throat. Save me, he finally managed. Give me  What? Strength? Courage? Mercy? Snow fell
around him, pale and silent, keeping its own counsel. The only sound was a faint soft sobbing. Jeyne, he
thought. It is her, sobbing in her bridal bed. Who else could it be? Gods do not weep. Or do they?
The sound was too painful to endure. Theon grabbed hold of a branch and pulled himself back
to his feet, knocked the snow off his legs, and limped back toward the lights. There are ghosts in
Winterfell, he thought, and I am one of them.
More snowmen had risen in the yard by the time Theon Greyjoy made his way back. To
command the snowy sentinels on the walls, the squires had erected a dozen snowy lords. One was
plainly meant to be Lord Manderly; it was the fattest snowman that Theon had ever seen. The

one-armed lord could only be Harwood Stout, the snow lady Barbrey Dustin. And the one closest to the
door with the beard made of icicles had to be old Whoresbane Umber.
Inside, the cooks were ladling out beef-and-barley stew, thick with carrots and onions, served in
trenchers hollowed from loaves of yesterdays bread. Scraps were thrown onto the floor to be gobbled
up by Ramsays girls and the other dogs.
The girls were glad to see him. They knew him by his smell. Red Jeyne loped over to lick at his
hand, and Helicent slipped under the table and curled up by his feet, gnawing at a bone. They were good
dogs. It was easy to forget that every one was named for a girl that Ramsay had hunted and killed.
Weary as he was, Theon had appetite enough to eat a little stew, washed down with ale. By
then the hall had grown raucous. Two of Roose Boltons scouts had come straggling back through the
Hunters Gate to report that Lord Stanniss advance had slowed to a crawl. His knights rode destriers,
and the big warhorses were foundering in the snow. The small, sure-footed garrons of the hill clans were
faring better, the scouts said, but the clansmen dared not press too far ahead or the whole host would
come apart. Lord Ramsay commanded Abel to give them a marching song in honor of Stannis trudging
through the snows, so the bard took up his lute again, whilst one of his washerwomen coaxed a sword
from Sour Alyn and mimed Stannis slashing at the snowflakes.
Theon was staring down into the last dregs of his third tankard when Lady Barbrey Dustin swept
into the hall and sent two of her sworn swords to bring him to her. When he stood below the dais, she
looked him up and down, and sniffed. Those are the same clothes you wore for the wedding.
Yes, my lady. They are the clothes I was given. That was one of the lessons he had learned at
the Dreadfort: to take what he was given and never ask for more.
Lady Dustin wore black, as ever, though her sleeves were lined with vair. Her gown had a high
stiff collar that framed her face. You know this castle.
Once.
Somewhere beneath us are the crypts where the old Stark kings sit in darkness. My men have
not been able to find the way down into them. They have been through all the undercrofts and cellars,
even the dungeons, but 
The crypts cannot be accessed from the dungeons, my lady.
Can you show me the way down?
Theres nothing down there but
dead Starks? Aye. And all my favorite Starks are dead, as it happens. Do you know the way or
not?
I do. He did not like the crypts, had never liked the crypts, but he was no stranger to them.

Show me. Serjeant, fetch a lantern.
My lady will want a warm cloak, cautioned Theon. We will need to go outside.
The snow was coming down heavier than ever when they left the hall, with Lady Dustin wrapped
in sable. Huddled in their hooded cloaks, the guards outside were almost indistinguishable from the
snowmen. Only their breath fogging the air gave proof that they still lived. Fires burned along the
battlements, a vain attempt to drive the gloom away. Their small party found themselves slogging
through a smooth, unbroken expanse of white that came halfway up their calves. The tents in the yard
were half-buried, sagging under the weight of the accumulation.
The entrance to the crypts was in the oldest section of the castle, near the foot of the First Keep,
which had sat unused for hundreds of years. Ramsay had put it to the torch when he sacked Winterfell,
and much of what had not burned had collapsed. Only a shell remained, one side open to the elements
and filling up with snow. Rubble was strewn all about it: great chunks of shattered masonry, burned
beams, broken gargoyles. The falling snow had covered almost all of it, but part of one gargoyle still
poked above the drift, its grotesque face snarling sightless at the sky.
This is where they found Bran when he fell. Theon had been out hunting that day, riding with
Lord Eddard and King Robert, with no hint of the dire news that awaited them back at the castle. He
remembered Robbs face when they told him. No one had expected the broken boy to live. The gods
could not kill Bran, no more than I could. It was a strange thought, and stranger still to remember that
Bran might still be alive.
There. Theon pointed to where a snowbank had crept up the wall of the keep. Under there.
Watch for broken stones.
It took Lady Dustins men the better part of half an hour to uncover the entrance, shoveling
through the snow and shifting rubble. When they did, the door was frozen shut. Her serjeant had to go
find an axe before he could pull it open, hinges screaming, to reveal stone steps spiraling down into
darkness.
It is a long way down, my lady, Theon cautioned.
Lady Dustin was undeterred. Beron, the light.
The way was narrow and steep, the steps worn in the center by centuries of feet. They went
single filethe serjeant with the lantern, then Theon and Lady Dustin, her other man behind them. He
had always thought of the crypts as cold, and so they seemed in summer, but now as they descended
the air grew warmer. Not warm, never warm, but warmer than above. Down there below the earth, it
would seem, the chill was constant, unchanging.
The bride weeps, Lady Dustin said, as they made their way down, step by careful step. Our
little Lady Arya.

Take care now. Take care, take care. He put one hand on the wall. The shifting torchlight made
the steps seem to move beneath his feet. As  as you say, mlady.
Roose is not pleased. Tell your bastard that.
He is not my bastard, he wanted to say, but another voice inside him said, He is, he is. Reek
belongs to Ramsay, and Ramsay belongs to Reek. You must not forget your name.
Dressing her in grey and white serves no good if the girl is left to sob. The Freys may not care,
but the northmen  they fear the Dreadfort, but they love the Starks.
Not you, said Theon. Not me, the Lady of Barrowton confessed, but the rest, yes. Old
Whoresbane is only here because the Freys hold the Greatjon captive. And do you imagine the
Hornwood men have forgotten the Bastards last marriage, and how his lady wife was left to starve,
chewing her own fingers? What do you think passes through their heads when they hear the new bride
weeping? Valiant Neds precious little girl.
No, he thought. She is not of Lord Eddards blood, her name is Jeyne, she is only a stewards
daughter. He did not doubt that Lady Dustin suspected, but even so 
Lady Aryas sobs do us more harm than all of Lord Stanniss swords and spears. If the Bastard
means to remain Lord of Winterfell, he had best teach his wife to laugh.
My lady, Theon broke in. Here we are.
The steps go farther down, observed Lady Dustin. There are lower levels. Older. The lowest
level is partly collapsed, I hear. I have never been down there. He pushed the door open and led them
out into a long vaulted tunnel, where mighty granite pillars marched two by two into blackness.
Lady Dustins serjeant raised the lantern. Shadows slid and shifted. A small light in a great
darkness. Theon had never felt comfortable in the crypts. He could feel the stone kings staring down at
him with their stone eyes, stone fingers curled around the hilts of rusted longswords. None had any love
for ironborn. A familiar sense of dread filled him.
So many, Lady Dustin said. Do you know their names?
Once  but that was a long time ago. Theon pointed. The ones on this side were Kings in the
North. Torrhen was the last.
The King Who Knelt.
Aye, my lady. After him they were only lords.
Until the Young Wolf. Where is Ned Starks tomb?
At the end. This way, my lady.

Their footsteps echoed through the vault as they made their way between the rows of pillars.
The stone eyes of the dead men seemed to follow them, and the eyes of their stone direwolves as well.
The faces stirred faint memories. A few names came back to him, unbidden, whispered in the ghostly
voice of Maester Luwin. King Edrick Snowbeard, who had ruled the north for a hundred years. Brandon
the Shipwright, who had sailed beyond the sunset. Theon Stark, the Hungry Wolf. My namesake. Lord
Beron Stark, who made common cause with Casterly Rock to war against Dagon Greyjoy, Lord of Pyke, in
the days when the Seven Kingdoms were ruled in all but name by the bastard sorcerer men called
Bloodraven.
That king is missing his sword, Lady Dustin observed.
It was true. Theon did not recall which king it was, but the longsword he should have held was
gone. Streaks of rust remained to show where it had been. The sight disquieted him. He had always
heard that the iron in the sword kept the spirits of the dead locked within their tombs. If a sword was
missing 
There are ghosts in Winterfell. And I am one of them.
They walked on. Barbrey Dustins face seemed to harden with every step. She likes this place no
more than I do. Theon heard himself say, My lady, why do you hate the Starks?
She studied him. For the same reason you love them.
Theon stumbled. Love them? I never  I took this castle from them, my lady. I had  had Bran
and Rickon put to death, mounted their heads on spikes, I 
 rode south with Robb Stark, fought beside him at the Whispering Wood and Riverrun,
returned to the Iron Islands as his envoy to treat with your own father. Barrowton sent men with the
Young Wolf as well. I gave him as few men as I dared, but I knew that I must needs give him some or risk
the wroth of Winterfell. So I had my own eyes and ears in that host. They kept me well informed. I know
who you are. I know what you are. Now answer my question. Why do you love the Starks?
I  Theon put a gloved hand against a pillar.  I wanted to be one of them 
And never could. We have more in common than you know, my lord. But come.
Only a little farther on, three tombs were closely grouped together. That was where they halted.
Lord Rickard, Lady Dustin observed, studying the central figure. The statue loomed above them
long-faced, bearded, solemn. He had the same stone eyes as the rest, but his looked sad. He lacks a
sword as well.
It was true. Someone has been down here stealing swords. Brandons is gone as well.
He would hate that. She pulled off her glove and touched his knee, pale flesh against dark
stone. Brandon loved his sword. He loved to hone it. I want it sharp enough to shave the hair from a

womans cunt, he used to say. And how he loved to use it. A bloody sword is a beautiful thing, he told
me once.
You knew him, Theon said.
The lantern light in her eyes made them seem as if they were afire. Brandon was fostered at
Barrowton with old Lord Dustin, the father of the one Id later wed, but he spent most of his time riding
the Rills. He loved to ride. His little sister took after him in that. A pair of centaurs, those two. And my
lord father was always pleased to play host to the heir to Winterfell. My father had great ambitions for
House Ryswell. He would have served up my maidenhead to any Stark who happened by, but there was
no need. Brandon was never shy about taking what he wanted. I am old now, a dried-up thing, too long
a widow, but I still remember the look of my maidens blood on his cock the night he claimed me. I think
Brandon liked the sight as well. A bloody sword is a beautiful thing, yes. It hurt, but it was a sweet pain.
The day I learned that Brandon was to marry Catelyn Tully, though  there was nothing sweet
about that pain. He never wanted her, I promise you that. He told me so, on our last night together 
but Rickard Stark had great ambitions too. Southron ambitions that would not be served by having his
heir marry the daughter of one of his own vassals. Afterward my father nursed some hope of wedding
me to Brandons brother Eddard, but Catelyn Tully got that one as well. I was left with young Lord
Dustin, until Ned Stark took him from me.
Roberts Rebellion 
Lord Dustin and I had not been married half a year when Robert rose and Ned Stark called his
banners. I begged my husband not to go. He had kin he might have sent in his stead. An uncle famed for
his prowess with an axe, a great-uncle who had fought in the War of the Ninepenny Kings. But he was a
man and full of pride, nothing would serve but that he lead the Barrowton levies himself. I gave him a
horse the day he set out, a red stallion with a fiery mane, the pride of my lord fathers herds. My lord
swore that he would ride him home when the war was done.
Ned Stark returned the horse to me on his way back home to Winterfell. He told me that my
lord had died an honorable death, that his body had been laid to rest beneath the red mountains of
Dorne. He brought his sisters bones back north, though, and there she rests  but I promise you, Lord
Eddards bones will never rest beside hers. I mean to feed them to my dogs.
Theon did not understand. His  his bones  ?
Her lips twisted. It was an ugly smile, a smile that reminded him of Ramsays. Catelyn Tully
dispatched Lord Eddards bones north before the Red Wedding, but your iron uncle seized Moat Cailin
and closed the way. I have been watching ever since. Should those bones ever emerge from the
swamps, they will get no farther than Barrowton. She threw one last lingering look at the likeness of
Eddard Stark. We are done here.

The snowstorm was still raging when they emerged from the crypts. Lady Dustin was silent
during their ascent, but when they stood beneath the ruins of the First Keep again she shivered and said,
You would do well not to repeat anything I might have said down there. Is that understood?
It was. Hold my tongue or lose it.
Roose has trained you well. She left him there.
THE KINGS PRIZE
The kings host departed Deepwood Motte by the light of a golden dawn, uncoiling from behind
the log palisades like a long, steel serpent emerging from its nest.
The southron knights rode out in plate and mail, dinted and scarred by the battles they had
fought, but still bright enough to glitter when they caught the rising sun. Faded and stained, torn and
mended, their banners and surcoats still made a riot of colors amidst the winter woodazure and
orange, red and green, purple and blue and gold, glimmering amongst bare brown trunks, grey-green
pines and sentinels, drifts of dirty snow.
Each knight had his squires, servants, and men-at-arms. Behind them came armorers, cooks,
grooms; ranks of spearmen, axemen, archers; grizzled veterans of a hundred battles and green boys off
to fight their first. Before them marched the clansmen from the hills; chiefs and champions astride
shaggy garrons, their hirsute fighters trotting beside them, clad in furs and boiled leather and old mail.
Some painted their faces brown and green and tied bundles of brush about them, to hide amongst the
trees.
Back of the main column the baggage train followed: mules, horses, oxen, a mile of wayns and
carts laden with food, fodder, tents, and other provisions. Last the rear guardmore knights in plate
and mail, with a screening of outriders following half-hidden to make certain no foe could steal up on
them unawares.
Asha Greyjoy rode in the baggage train, in a covered wayn with two huge iron-rimmed wheels,
fettered at wrist and ankle and watched over day and night by a She-Bear who snored worse than any
man. His Grace King Stannis was taking no chances on his prize escaping captivity. He meant to carry her
to Winterfell, to display her there in chains for the lords of the north to see, the krakens daughter
bound and broken, proof of his power.
Trumpets saw the column on its way. Spearpoints shone in the light of the rising sun, and all
along the verges the grass glistened with the morning frost. Between Deepwood Motte and Winterfell
lay one hundred leagues of forest. Three hundred miles as the raven flies. Fifteen days, the knights
told each other.

Robert would have done it in ten, Asha heard Lord Fell boasting. His grandsire had been slain
by Robert at Summerhall; somehow this had elevated his slayer to godlike prowess in the grandsons
eyes. Robert would have been inside Winterfell a fortnight ago, thumbing his nose at Bolton from the
battlements.
Best not mention that to Stannis, suggested Justin Massey, or hell have us marching nights
as well as days.
This king lives in his brothers shadow, Asha thought.
Her ankle still gave a stab of pain whenever she tried to put her weight on it. Something was
broken down inside, Asha did not doubt. The swelling had gone down at Deepwood, but the pain
remained. A sprain would surely have healed by now. Her irons clacked every time she moved. The
fetters chafed at her wrists and at her pride. But that was the cost of submission.
No man has ever died from bending his knee, her father had once told her. He who kneels
may rise again, blade in hand. He who will not kneel stays dead, stiff legs and all. Balon Greyjoy had
proved the truth of his own words when his first rebellion failed; the kraken bent the knee to stag and
direwolf, only to rise again when Robert Baratheon and Eddard Stark were dead.
And so at Deepwood the krakens daughter had done the same when she was dumped before
the king, bound and limping (though blessedly unraped), her ankle a blaze of pain. I yield, Your Grace.
Do as you wish with me. I ask only that you spare my men. Qarl and Tris and the rest who had survived
the wolfswood were all she had to care about. Only nine remained. We ragged nine, Cromm named
them. He was the worst wounded.
Stannis had given her their lives. Yet she sensed no true mercy in the man. He was determined,
beyond a doubt. Nor did he lack for courage. Men said he was just  and if his was a harsh, hard-handed
sort of justice, well, life on the Iron Islands had accustomed Asha Greyjoy to that. All the same, she could
not like this king. Those deep-set blue eyes of his seemed always slitted in suspicion, cold fury boiling
just below their surface. Her life meant little and less to him. She was only his hostage, a prize to show
the north that he could vanquish the ironborn.
More fool him. Bringing down a woman was not like to awe any northmen, if she knew the
breed, and her worth as a hostage was less than naught. Her uncle ruled the Iron Islands now, and the
Crows Eye would not care if she lived or died. It might matter some to the wretched ruin of a husband
that Euron had inflicted upon her, but Eric Ironmaker did not have coin enough to ransom her. But there
was no explaining such things to Stannis Baratheon. Her very womanhood seemed to offend him. Men
from the green lands liked their women soft and sweet in silk, she knew, not clad in mail and leather
with a throwing axe in each hand. But her short acquaintance with the king at Deepwood Motte
convinced her that he would have been no more fond of her in a gown. Even with Galbart Glovers wife,
the pious Lady Sybelle, he had been correct and courteous but plainly uncomfortable. This southron king
seemed to be one of those men to whom women are another race, as strange and unfathomable as
giants and grumkins and the children of the forest. The She-Bear made him grind his teeth as well.

There was only one woman that Stannis listened to, and he had left her on the Wall. Though I
would sooner she was with us, confessed Ser Justin Massey, the fair-haired knight who commanded
the baggage train. The last time we went into battle without Lady Melisandre was the Blackwater,
when Lord Renlys shade came down upon us and drove half our host into the bay.
The last time? Asha said. Was this sorceress at Deepwood Motte? I did not see her.
Hardly a battle, Ser Justin said, smiling. Your ironmen fought bravely, my lady, but we had
many times your numbers, and we took you unawares. Winterfell will know that we are coming. And
Roose Bolton has as many men as we do.
Or more, thought Asha.
Even prisoners have ears, and she had heard all the talk at Deepwood Motte, when King Stannis
and his captains were debating this march. Ser Justin had opposed it from the start, along with many of
the knights and lords who had come with Stannis from the south. But the wolves insisted; Roose Bolton
could not be suffered to hold Winterfell, and the Neds girl must be rescued from the clutches of his
bastard. So said Morgan Liddle, Brandon Norrey, Big Bucket Wull, the Flints, even the She-Bear. One
hundred leagues from Deepwood Motte to Winterfell, said Artos Flint, the night the argument boiled
to a head in Galbart Glovers longhall. Three hundred miles as the raven flies.
A long march, a knight named Corliss Penny said.
Not so long as that, insisted Ser Godry, the big knight the others called the Giantslayer. We
have come as far already. The Lord of Light will blaze a path for us.
And when we arrive before Winterfell? said Justin Massey. Two walls with a moat between
them, and the inner wall a hundred feet high. Bolton will never march out to face us in the field, and we
do not have the provisions to mount a siege.
Arnolf Karstark will join his strength to ours, never forget, said Harwood Fell. Mors Umber as
well. We will have as many northmen as Lord Bolton. And the woods are thick north of the castle. We
will raise siege towers, build rams 
And die by the thousands, Asha thought. We might do best to winter here, suggested Lord
Peasebury. Winter here? Big Bucket roared. How much food and fodder do you think Galbart Glover
has laid by?
Then Ser Richard Horpe, the knight with the ravaged face and the deaths-head moths on his
surcoat, turned to Stannis and said, Your Grace, your brother
The king cut him off. We all know what my brother would do. Robert would gallop up to the
gates of Winterfell alone, break them with his warhammer, and ride through the rubble to slay Roose
Bolton with his left hand and the Bastard with his right. Stannis rose to his feet. I am not Robert. But
we will march, and we will free Winterfell  or die in the attempt.

Whatever doubts his lords might nurse, the common men seemed to have faith in their king.
Stannis had smashed Mance Rayders wildlings at the Wall and cleaned Asha and her ironborn out of
Deepwood Motte; he was Roberts brother, victor in a famous sea battle off Fair Isle, the man who had
held Storms End all through Roberts Rebellion. And he bore a heros sword, the enchanted blade
Lightbringer, whose glow lit up the night.
Our foes are not as formidable as they appear, Ser Justin assured Asha on the first day of the
march. Roose Bolton is feared, but little loved. And his friends the Freys  the north has not forgotten
the Red Wedding. Every lord at Winterfell lost kinsmen there. Stannis need only bloody Bolton, and the
northmen will abandon him.
So you hope, thought Asha, but first the king must bloody him. Only a fool deserts the winning
side.
Ser Justin called upon her cart half a dozen times that first day, to bring her food and drink and
tidings of the march. A man of easy smiles and endless japes, large and well fleshed, with pink cheeks,
blue eyes, and a wind-tossed tangle of white-blond hair as pale as flax, he was a considerate gaoler, ever
solicitous of his captives comfort.
He wants you, said the She-Bear, after his third visit.
Her proper name was Alysane of House Mormont, but she wore the other name as easily as she
wore her mail. Short, chunky, muscular, the heir to Bear Island had big thighs, big breasts, and big hands
ridged with callus. Even in sleep she wore ringmail under her furs, boiled leather under that, and an old
sheepskin under the leather, turned inside out for warmth. All those layers made her look almost as
wide as she was tall. And ferocious. Sometimes it was hard for Asha Greyjoy to remember that she and
the She-Bear were almost of an age.
He wants my lands, Asha replied. He wants the Iron Islands. She knew the signs. She had
seen the same before in other suitors. Masseys own ancestral holdings, far to the south, were lost to
him, so he must needs make an advantageous marriage or resign himself to being no more than a knight
of the kings household. Stannis had frustrated Ser Justins hopes of marrying the wildling princess that
Asha had heard so much of, so now he had set his sights on her. No doubt he dreamed of putting her in
the Seastone Chair on Pyke and ruling through her, as her lord and master. That would require ridding
her of her present lord and master, to be sure  not to mention the uncle who had married her to him.
Not likely, Asha judged. The Crows Eye could eat Ser Justin to break his fast and never even belch.
It made no matter. Her fathers lands would never be hers, no matter whom she married. The
ironborn were not a forgiving people, and Asha had been defeated twice. Once at the kingsmoot by her
uncle Euron, and again at Deepwood Motte by Stannis. More than enough to stamp her as unfit to rule.
Wedding Justin Massey, or any of Stannis Baratheons lordlings, would hurt more than it helped. The
krakens daughter turned out to be just a woman after all, the captains and the kings would say. See how
she spreads her legs for this soft green land lord.

Still, if Ser Justin wished to court her favor with food and wine and words, Asha was not like to
discourage him. He made for better company than the taciturn She-Bear, and she was elsewise alone
amongst five thousand foes. Tris Botley, Qarl the Maid, Cromm, Roggon, and the rest of her bloodied
band had been left behind at Deepwood Motte, in Galbart Glovers dungeons.
The army covered twenty-two miles the first day, by the reckoning of the guides Lady Sybelle
had given them, trackers and hunters sworn to Deepwood with clan names like Forrester and Woods,
Branch and Bole. The second day the host made twenty-four, as their vanguard passed beyond the
Glover lands into the thick of the wolfswood. Rhllor, send your light to lead us through this gloom, the
faithful prayed that night as they gathered about a roaring blaze outside the kings pavilion. Southron
knights and men-at-arms, the lot of them. Asha would have called them kings men, but the other
stormlanders and crownlands men named them queens men  though the queen they followed was
the red one at Castle Black, not the wife that Stannis Baratheon had left behind at
Eastwatch-by-the-Sea. Oh, Lord of Light, we beseech you, cast your fiery eye upon us and keep us safe
and warm, they sang to the flames, for the night is dark and full of terrors.
A big knight named Ser Godry Farring led them. Godry the Giantslayer. A big name for a small
man. Farring was broad-chested and well muscled under his plate and mail. He was also arrogant and
vain, it seemed to Asha, hungry for glory, deaf to caution, a glutton for praise, and contemptuous of
smallfolk, wolves, and women. In the last, he was not unlike his king.
Let me have a horse, Asha asked Ser Justin, when he rode up to the wayn with half a ham. I
am going mad in these chains. I will not attempt escape. You have my word on that.
Would that I could, my lady. You are the kings captive, not mine own.
Your king will not take a womans word.
The She-Bear growled. Why should we trust the word of any ironman after what your brother
did at Winterfell?
I am not Theon, Asha insisted  but the chains remained.
As Ser Justin galloped down the column, she found herself remembering the last time she had
seen her mother. It had been on Harlaw, at Ten Towers. A candle had been flickering in her mothers
chamber, but her great carved bed was empty beneath its dusty canopy. Lady Alannys sat beside a
window, staring out across the sea. Did you bring my baby boy? shed asked, mouth trembling. Theon
could not come, Asha had told her, looking down upon the ruin of the woman who had given her birth,
a mother who had lost two of her sons. And the third 
I send you each a piece of prince.
Whatever befell when battle was joined at Winterfell, Asha Greyjoy did not think her brother
likely to survive it. Theon Turncloak. Even the She-Bear wants his head on a spike.

Do you have brothers? Asha asked her keeper.
Sisters, Alysane Mormont replied, gruff as ever. Five, we were. All girls. Lyanna is back on
Bear Island. Lyra and Jory are with our mother. Dacey was murdered.
The Red Wedding.
Aye. Alysane stared at Asha for a moment. I have a son. Hes only two. My daughters nine.
You started young.
Too young. But better that than wait too late.
A stab at me, Asha thought, but let it be. You are wed.
No. My children were fathered by a bear. Alysane smiled. Her teeth were crooked, but there
was something ingratiating about that smile. Mormont women are skinchangers. We turn into bears
and find mates in the woods. Everyone knows.
Asha smiled back. Mormont women are all fighters too.
The other womans smile faded. What we are is what you made us. On Bear Island every child
learns to fear krakens rising from the sea.
The Old Way. Asha turned away, chains clinking faintly. On the third day the forest pressed close
around them, and the rutted roads dwindled down to game trails that soon proved to be too narrow for
their larger wagons. Here and there they wound their way past familiar landmarks: a stony hill that
looked a bit like a wolfs head when seen from a certain angle, a half-frozen waterfall, a natural stone
arch bearded with grey-green moss. Asha knew them all. She had come this way before, riding to
Winterfell to persuade her brother Theon to abandon his conquest and return with her to the safety of
Deepwood Motte. I failed in that as well.
That day they made fourteen miles, and were glad of it.
When dusk fell, the driver pulled the wayn off under the tree. As he was loosing the horses from
the traces, Ser Justin trotted up and undid the fetters around Ashas ankles. He and the She-Bear
escorted her through the camp to the kings tent. A captive she might be, but she was still a Greyjoy of
Pyke, and it pleased Stannis Baratheon to feed her scraps from his own table, where he supped with his
captains and commanders.
The kings pavilion was near as large as the longhall back at Deepwood Motte, but there was
little grand about it beyond its size. Its stiff walls of heavy yellow canvas were badly faded, stained by
mud and water, with spots of mildew showing. Atop its center pole flew the royal standard, golden, with
a stags head within a burning heart. On three sides the pavilions of the southron lordlings who had
come north with Stannis surrounded it. On the fourth side the nightfire roared, lashing at the darkening
sky with swirls of flame.

A dozen men were splitting logs to feed the blaze when Asha came limping up with her keepers.
Queens men. Their god was Red Rhllor, and a jealous god he was. Her own god, the Drowned God of
the Iron Isles, was a demon to their eyes, and if she did not embrace this Lord of Light, she would be
damned and doomed. They would as gladly burn me as those logs and broken branches. Some had
urged that very thing within her hearing after the battle in the woods. Stannis had refused.
The king stood outside his tent, staring into the nightfire. What does he see there? Victory?
Doom? The face of his red and hungry god? His eyes were sunk in deep pits, his close-cropped beard no
more than a shadow across his hollow cheeks and bony jawbone. Yet there was power in his stare, an
iron ferocity that told Asha this man would never, ever turn back from his course.
She went to one knee before him. Sire. Am I humbled enough for you, Your Grace? Am I
beaten, bowed, and broken sufficiently for your liking? Strike these chains from my wrists, I beg you. Let
me ride. I will attempt no escape.
Stannis looked at her as he might look at a dog who presumed to hump against his leg. You
earned those irons.
I did. Now I offer you my men, my ships, my wits.
Your ships are mine, or burnt. Your men  how many are left? Ten? Twelve?
Nine. Six, if you count only those strong enough to fight. Dagmer Cleftjaw holds Torrhens
Square. A fierce fighter, and a leal servant of House Greyjoy. I can deliver that castle to you, and its
garrison as well. Perhaps, she might have added, but it would not serve her cause to show doubt before
this king.
Torrhens Square is not worth the mud beneath my heels. It is Winterfell that matters.
Strike off these irons and let me help you take it, Sire. Your Graces royal brother was
renowned for turning fallen foes into friends. Make me your man.
The gods did not make you a man. How can I? Stannis turned back to the nightfire and
whatever he saw dancing there amongst the orange flames.
Ser Justin Massey grasped Asha by the arm and pulled her inside the royal tent. That was ill
judged, my lady, he told her. Never speak to him of Robert.
I should have known better. Asha knew how it went with little brothers. She remembered Theon
as a boy, a shy child who lived in awe, and fear, of Rodrik and Maron. They never grow out of it, she
decided. A little brother may live to be a hundred, but he will always be a little brother. She rattled her
iron jewelry and imagined how pleasant it would be to step up behind Stannis and throttle him with the
chain that bound her wrists.
They supped that night on a venison stew made from a scrawny hart that a scout called Benjicot
Branch had brought down. But only in the royal tent. Beyond those canvas walls, each man got a heel of

bread and a chunk of black sausage no longer than a finger, washed down with the last of Galbart
Glovers ale.
One hundred leagues from Deepwood Motte to Winterfell. Three hundred miles as the raven
flies. Would that we were ravens, Justin Massey said on the fourth day of the march, the day the snow
began to fall. Only a few small flurries at first. Cold and wet, but nothing they could not push through
easily.
But it snowed again the next day, and the day after, and the day after that. The thick beards of
the wolves were soon caked with ice where their breath had frozen, and every clean-shaved southron
boy was letting his whiskers grow out to keep his face warm. Before long the ground ahead of the
column was blanketed in white, concealing stones and twisted roots and deadfalls, turning every step
into an adventure. The wind picked up as well, driving the snow before it. The kings host became a
column of snowmen, staggering through knee-high drifts.
On the third day of snow, the kings host began to come apart. Whilst the southron knights and
lordlings struggled, the men of the northern hills fared better. Their garrons were sure-footed beasts
that ate less than palfreys, and much less than the big destriers, and the men who rode them were at
home in the snow. Many of the wolves donned curious footwear. Bear-paws, they called them, queer
elongated things made with bent wood and leather strips. Lashed onto the bottoms of their boots, the
things somehow allowed them to walk on top of the snow without breaking through the crust and
sinking down to their thighs.
Some had bear-paws for their horses too, and the shaggy little garrons wore them as easily as
other mounts wore iron horseshoes  but the palfreys and destriers wanted no part of them. When a
few of the kings knights strapped them onto their feet nonetheless, the big southern horses balked and
refused to move, or tried to shake the things off their feet. One destrier broke an ankle trying to walk in
them.
The northmen on their bear-paws soon began to outdistance the rest of the host. They overtook
the knights in the main column, then Ser Godry Farring and his vanguard. And meanwhile, the wayns
and wagons of the baggage train were falling farther and farther behind, so much so that the men of the
rear guard were constantly chivvying them to keep up a faster pace.
On the fifth day of the storm, the baggage train crossed a rippling expanse of waist-high
snowdrifts that concealed a frozen pond. When the hidden ice cracked beneath the weight of the
wagons, three teamsters and four horses were swallowed up by the freezing water, along with two of
the men who tried to rescue them. One was Harwood Fell. His knights pulled him out before he
drowned, but not before his lips turned blue and his skin as pale as milk. Nothing they did could seem to
warm him afterward. He shivered violently for hours, even when they cut him out of his sodden clothes,
wrapped him in warm furs, and sat him by the fire. That same night he slipped into a feverish sleep. He
never woke.

That was the night that Asha first heard the queens men muttering about a sacrificean
offering to their red god, so he might end the storm. The gods of the north have unleashed this storm
on us, Ser Corliss Penny said.
False gods, insisted Ser Godry, the Giantslayer. Rhllor is with us, said Ser Clayton Suggs.
Melisandre is not, said Justin Massey.
The king said nothing. But he heard. Asha was certain of that. He sat at the high table as a dish
of onion soup cooled before him, hardly tasted, staring at the flame of the nearest candle with those
hooded eyes, ignoring the talk around him. The second-in-command, the lean tall knight named Richard
Horpe, spoke for him. The storm must break soon, he declared.
But the storm only worsened. The wind became a lash as cruel as any slavers whip. Asha
thought she had known cold on Pyke, when the wind came howling off the sea, but that was nothing
compared to this. This is a cold that drives men mad.
Even when the shout came down the line to make camp for the night, it was no easy thing to
warm yourself. The tents were damp and heavy, hard to raise, harder to take down, and prone to
sudden collapse if too much snow accumulated on top of them. The kings host was creeping through
the heart of the largest forest in the Seven Kingdoms, yet dry wood became difficult to find. Every camp
saw fewer fires burning, and those that were lit threw off more smoke than heat. Oft as not food was
eaten cold, even raw.
Even the nightfire shrank and grew feeble, to the dismay of the queens men. Lord of Light,
preserve us from this evil, they prayed, led by the deep voice of Ser Godry the Giantslayer. Show us
your bright sun again, still these winds, and melt these snows, that we may reach your foes and smite
them. The night is dark and cold and full of terrors, but yours is the power and glory and the light. Rhllor,
fill us with your fire.
Later, when Ser Corliss Penny wondered aloud whether an entire army had ever frozen to death
in a winter storm, the wolves laughed. This is no winter, declared Big Bucket Wull. Up in the hills we
say that autumn kisses you, but winter fucks you hard. This is only autumns kiss.
God grant that I never know true winter, then. Asha herself was spared the worst of it; she was
the kings prize, after all. Whilst others hungered, she was fed. Whilst others shivered, she was warm.
Whilst others struggled through the snows atop weary horses, she rode upon a bed of furs inside a
wayn, with a stiff canvas roof to keep the snow off, comfortable in her chains.
The horses and the common men had it hardest. Two squires from the stormlands stabbed a
man-at-arms to death in a quarrel over who would sit closest to the fire. The next night some archers
desperate for warmth somehow managed to set their tent afire, which had at least the virtue of heating
the adjacent tents. Destriers began to perish of exhaustion and exposure. What is a knight without a
horse? men riddled. A snowman with a sword. Any horse that went down was butchered on the spot
for meat. Their provisions had begun to run low as well.

Peasebury, Cobb, Foxglove, and other southron lords urged the king to make camp until the
storm had passed. Stannis would have none of that. Nor would he heed the queens men when they
came to urge him to make an offering to their hungry red god.
That tale she had from Justin Massey, who was less devout than most. A sacrifice will prove our
faith still burns true, Sire, Clayton Suggs had told the king. And Godry the Giantslayer said, The old
gods of the north have sent this storm upon us. Only Rhllor can end it. We must give him an
unbeliever.
Half my army is made up of unbelievers, Stannis had replied. I will have no burnings. Pray
harder.
No burnings today, and none tomorrow  but if the snows continue, how long before the kings
resolve begins to weaken? Asha had never shared her uncle Aerons faith in the Drowned God, but that
night she prayed as fervently to He Who Dwells Beneath the Waves as ever the Damphair had. The
storm did not abate. The march continued, slowing to a stagger, then a crawl. Five miles was a good day.
Then three. Then two.
By the ninth day of the storm, every camp saw the captains and commanders entering the kings
tent wet and weary, to sink to one knee and report their losses for the day.
One man dead, three missing.
Six horses lost, one of them mine own.
Two dead men, one a knight. Four horses down. We got one up again. The others are lost.
Destriers, and one palfrey.
The cold count, Asha heard it named. The baggage train suffered the worst: dead horses, lost
men, wayns overturned and broken. The horses founder in the snow, Justin Massey told the king.
Men wander off or just sit down to die.
Let them, King Stannis snapped. We press on.
The northmen fared much better, with their garrons and their bear-paws. Black Donnel Flint and
his half-brother Artos only lost one man between them. The Liddles, the Wulls, and the Norreys lost
none at all. One of Morgan Liddles mules had gone astray, but he seemed to think the Flints had stolen
him.
One hundred leagues from Deepwood Motte to Winterfell. Three hundred miles as the raven
flies. Fifteen days. The fifteenth day of the march came and went, and they had crossed less than half
the distance. A trail of broken wayns and frozen corpses stretched back behind them, buried beneath
the blowing snow. The sun and moon and stars had been gone so long that Asha was starting to wonder
whether she had dreamed them.

It was the twentieth day of the advance when she finally won free of her ankle chains. Late that
afternoon, one of the horses drawing her wayn died in the traces. No replacement could be found; what
draft horses remained were needed to pull the wagons that held their food and fodder. When Ser Justin
Massey rode up, he told them to butcher the dead horse for meat and break up the wagon for firewood.
Then he removed the fetters around Ashas ankles, rubbing the stiffness from her calves. I have no
mount to give you, my lady, he said, and if we tried to ride double, it would be the end of my horse as
well. You must walk.
Ashas ankle throbbed beneath her weight with every step. The cold will numb it soon enough,
she told herself. In an hour I wont feel my feet at all. She was only part wrong; it took less time than
that. By the time darkness halted the column, she was stumbling and yearning for the comforts of her
rolling prison. The irons made me weak. Supper found her so exhausted that she fell asleep at the table.
On the twenty-sixth day of the fifteen-day march, the last of the vegetables was consumed. On
the thirty-second day, the last of the grain and fodder. Asha wondered how long a man could live on
raw, half-frozen horse meat.
Branch swears we are only three days from Winterfell, Ser Richard Horpe told the king that
night after the cold count.
If we leave the weakest men behind, said Corliss Penny. The weakest men are beyond
saving, insisted Horpe. Those still strong enough must reach Winterfell or die as well.
The Lord of Light will deliver us the castle, said Ser Godry Farring. If Lady Melisandre were
with us
Finally, after a nightmarish day when the column advanced a bare mile and lost a dozen horses
and four men, Lord Peasebury turned against the northmen. This march was madness. More dying
every day, and for what? Some girl?
Neds girl, said Morgan Liddle. He was the second of three sons, so the other wolves called
him Middle Liddle, though not often in his hearing. It was Morgan who had almost slain Asha in the fight
by Deepwood Motte. He had come to her later, on the march, to beg her pardon  for calling her cunt in
his battle lust, not for trying to split her head open with an axe.
Neds girl, echoed Big Bucket Wull. And we should have had her and the castle both if you
prancing southron jackanapes didnt piss your satin breeches at a little snow.
A little snow? Peaseburys soft girlish mouth twisted in fury. Your ill counsel forced this
march upon us, Wull. I am starting to suspect you have been Boltons creature all along. Is that the way
of it? Did he send you to us to whisper poison in the kings ear?
Big Bucket laughed in his face. Lord Pea Pod. If you were a man, I would kill you for that, but my
sword is made of too fine a steel to besmirch with cravens blood. He took a drink of ale and wiped his

mouth. Aye, men are dying. More will die before we see Winterfell. What of it? This is war. Men die in
war. That is as it should be. As it has always been.
Ser Corliss Penny gave the clan chief an incredulous look. Do you want to die, Wull?
That seemed to amuse the northman. I want to live forever in a land where summer lasts a
thousand years. I want a castle in the clouds where I can look down over the world. I want to be
six-and-twenty again. When I was six-and-twenty I could fight all day and fuck all night. What men want
does not matter.
Winter is almost upon us, boy. And winter is death. I would sooner my men die fighting for the
Neds little girl than alone and hungry in the snow, weeping tears that freeze upon their cheeks. No one
sings songs of men who die like that. As for me, I am old. This will be my last winter. Let me bathe in
Bolton blood before I die. I want to feel it spatter across my face when my axe bites deep into a Bolton
skull. I want to lick it off my lips and die with the taste of it on my tongue.
Aye! shouted Morgan Liddle. Blood and battle! Then all the hill-men were shouting, banging
their cups and drinking horns on the table, filling the kings tent with the clangor.
Asha Greyjoy would have welcomed a fight herself. One battle, to put an end to this misery.
Steel on steel, pink snow, broken shields and severed limbs, and it would all be done.
The next day the kings scouts chanced upon an abandoned crofters village between two
lakesa mean and meagre place, no more than a few huts, a longhall, and a watchtower. Richard Horpe
commanded a halt, though the army had advanced no more than a half-mile that day and they were
hours shy of dark. It was well past moonrise before the baggage train and rear guard straggled in. Asha
was amongst them.
There are fish in those lakes, Horpe told the king. Well cut holes in the ice. The northmen
know how its done.
Even in his bulky fur cloak and heavy armor, Stannis looked like a man with one foot in the
grave. What little flesh hed carried on his tall, spare frame at Deepwood Motte had melted away during
the march. The shape of his skull could be seen under his skin, and his jaw was clenched so hard Asha
feared his teeth might shatter. Fish, then, he said, biting off each word with a snap. But we march at
first light.
Yet when light came, the camp woke to snow and silence. The sky turned from black to white,
and seemed no brighter. Asha Greyjoy awoke cramped and cold beneath the pile of sleeping furs,
listening to the She-Bears snores. She had never known a woman to snore so loudly, but she had grown
used to it whilst on the march, and even took some comfort in it now. It was the silence that troubled
her. No trumpets blew to rouse the men to mount up, form column, prepare to march. No warhorns
summoned forth the northmen. Something is wrong.

Asha crawled out from under her sleeping furs and pushed her way out of the tent, knocking
aside the wall of snow that had sealed them in during the night. Her irons clanked as she climbed to her
feet and took a breath of the icy morning air. The snow was still falling, even more heavily than when
shed crawled inside the tent. The lakes had vanished, and the woods as well. She could see the shapes
of other tents and lean-tos and the fuzzy orange glow of the beacon fire burning atop the watchtower,
but not the tower itself. The storm had swallowed the rest.
Somewhere ahead Roose Bolton awaited them behind the walls of Winterfell, but Stannis
Baratheons host sat snowbound and unmoving, walled in by ice and snow, starving.
DAENERYS
The candle was almost gone. Less than an inch remained, jutting from a pool of warm melted
wax to cast its light over the queens bed. The flame had begun to gutter.
It will go out before much longer, Dany realized, and when it does another night will be at its
end.
Dawn always came too soon.
She had not slept, could not sleep, would not sleep. She had not even dared to close her eyes,
for fear it would be morning when she opened them again. If only she had the power, she would have
made their nights go on forever, but the best that she could do was stay awake to try and savor every
last sweet moment before daybreak turned them into no more than fading memories.
Beside her, Daario Naharis was sleeping as peacefully as a newborn babe. He had a gift for
sleeping, hed boasted, smiling in that cocksure way of his. In the field, he would sleep in the saddle oft
as not, he claimed, so as to be well rested should he come upon a battle. Sun or storm, it made no
matter. A warrior who cannot sleep soon has no strength to fight, he said. He was never vexed by
nightmares either. When Dany told him how Serwyn of the Mirror Shield was haunted by the ghosts of
all the knights hed killed, Daario only laughed. If the ones I killed come bother me, I will kill them all
again. He has a sellswords conscience, she realized then. That is to say, none at all.
Daario lay upon his stomach, the light linen coverlets tangled about his long legs, his face
half-buried in the pillows.
Dany ran her hand down his back, tracing the line of his spine. His skin was smooth beneath her
touch, almost hairless. His skin is silk and satin. She loved the feel of him beneath her fingers. She loved
to run her fingers through his hair, to knead the ache from his calves after a long day in the saddle, to
cup his cock and feel it harden against her palm.

If she had been some ordinary woman, she would gladly have spent her whole life touching
Daario, tracing his scars and making him tell her how hed come by every one. I would give up my crown
if he asked it of me, Dany thought  but he had not asked it, and never would. Daario might whisper
words of love when the two of them were as one, but she knew it was the dragon queen he loved. If I
gave up my crown, he would not want me. Besides, kings who lost their crowns oft lost their heads as
well, and she could see no reason why it would be any different for a queen.
The candle flickered one last time and died, drowned in its own wax. Darkness swallowed the
feather bed and its two occupants, and filled every corner of the chamber. Dany wrapped her arms
around her captain and pressed herself against his back. She drank in the scent of him, savoring the
warmth of his flesh, the feel of his skin against her own. Remember, she told herself. Remember how he
felt. She kissed him on his shoulder.
Daario rolled toward her, his eyes open. Daenerys. He smiled a lazy smile. That was another of
his talents; he woke all at once, like a cat. Is it dawn?
Not yet. We have a while still.
Liar. I can see your eyes. Could I do that if it were the black of night? Daario kicked loose of
the coverlets and sat up. The half-light. Day will be here soon.
I do not want this night to end.
No? And why is that, my queen?
You know.
The wedding? He laughed. Marry me instead.
You know I cannot do that.
You are a queen. You can do what you like. He slid a hand along her leg. How many nights
remain to us?
Two. Only two. You know as well as I. This night and the next, and we must end this.
Marry me, and we can have all the nights forever.
If I could, I would. Khal Drogo had been her sun-and-stars, but he had been dead so long that
Daenerys had almost forgotten how it felt to love and be loved. Daario had helped her to remember. I
was dead and he brought me back to life. I was asleep and he woke me. My brave captain. Even so, of
late he grew too bold. On the day that he returned from his latest sortie, he had tossed the head of a
Yunkish lord at her feet and kissed her in the hall for all the world to see, until Barristan Selmy pulled the
two of them apart. Ser Grandfather had been so wroth that Dany feared blood might be shed. We
cannot wed, my love. You know why.

He climbed from her bed. Marry Hizdahr, then. I will give him a nice set of horns for his
wedding gift. Ghiscari men like to prance about in horns. They make them from their own hair, with
combs and wax and irons. Daario found his breeches and pulled them on. He did not trouble himself
with smallclothes.
Once I am wed it will be high treason to desire me. Dany pulled the coverlet up over her
breasts.
Then I must be a traitor. He slipped a blue silk tunic over his head and straightened the prongs
of his beard with his fingers. He had dyed it afresh for her, taking it from purple back to blue, as it had
been when first she met him. I smell of you, he said, sniffing at his fingers and grinning.
Dany loved the way his gold tooth gleamed when he grinned. She loved the fine hairs on his
chest. She loved the strength in his arms, the sound of his laughter, the way he would always look into
her eyes and say her name as he slid his cock inside her. You are beautiful, she blurted as she watched
him don his riding boots and lace them up. Some days he let her do that for him, but not today, it
seemed. Thats done with too.
Not beautiful enough to marry. Daario took his sword belt off the peg where he had hung it.
Where are you going?
Out into your city, he said, to drink a keg or two and pick a quarrel. It has been too long since
Ive killed a man. Might be I should seek out your betrothed.
Dany threw a pillow at him. You will leave Hizdahr be!
As my queen commands. Will you hold court today?
No. On the morrow I will be a woman wed, and Hizdahr will be king. Let him hold court. These
are his people.
Some are his, some are yours. The ones you freed.
Are you chiding me?
The ones you call your children. They want their mother.
You are. You are chiding me.
Only a little, bright heart. Will you come hold court?
After my wedding, perhaps. After the peace.
This after that you speak of never comes. You should hold court. My new men do not believe
that you are real. The ones who came over from the Windblown. Bred and born in Westeros, most of

them, full of tales about Targaryens. They want to see one with their own eyes. The Frog has a gift for
you.
The Frog? she said, giggling. And who is he?
He shrugged. Some Dornish boy. He squires for the big knight they call Greenguts. I told him he
could give his gift to me and Id deliver it, but he wouldnt have it.
Oh, a clever frog. Give the gift to me.  She threw the other pillow at him. Would I have ever
seen it?
Daario stroked his gilded mustachio. Would I steal from my sweet queen? If it were a gift
worthy of you, I would have put it into your soft hands myself.
As a token of your love?
As to that I will not say, but I told him that he could give it to you. You would not make a liar of
Daario Naharis? Dany was helpless to refuse. As you wish. Bring your frog to court tomorrow. The
others too. The Westerosi. It would be nice to hear the Common Tongue from someone besides Ser
Barristan.
As my queen commands. Daario bowed deeply, grinned, and took his leave, his cloak swirling
behind him.
Dany sat amongst the rumpled bedclothes with her arms about her knees, so forlorn that she
did not hear when Missandei came creeping in with bread and milk and figs. Your Grace? Are you
unwell? In the black of night this one heard you scream.
Dany took a fig. It was black and plump, still moist with dew. Will Hizdahr ever make me scream?
It was the wind that you heard screaming. She took a bite, but the fruit had lost its savor now that
Daario was gone. Sighing, she rose and called to Irri for a robe, then wandered out onto her terrace.
Her foes were all about her. There were never less than a dozen ships drawn up on the shore.
Some days there were as many as a hundred, when the soldiers were disembarking. The Yunkaii were
even bringing in wood by sea. Behind their ditches, they were building catapults, scorpions, tall
trebuchets. On still nights she could hear the hammers ringing through the warm, dry air. No siege
towers, though. No battering rams. They would not try to take Meereen by storm. They would wait
behind their siege lines, flinging stones at her until famine and disease had brought her people to their
knees.
Hizdahr will bring me peace. He must.
That night her cooks roasted her a kid with dates and carrots, but Dany could only eat a bite of
it. The prospect of wrestling with Meereen once more left her feeling weary. Sleep came hard, even
when Daario came back, so drunk that he could hardly stand. Beneath her coverlets she tossed and
turned, dreaming that Hizdahr was kissing her  but his lips were blue and bruised, and when he thrust

himself inside her, his manhood was cold as ice. She sat up with her hair disheveled and the bed-clothes
atangle. Her captain slept beside her, yet she was alone. She wanted to shake him, wake him, make him
hold her, fuck her, help her forget, but she knew that if she did, he would only smile and yawn and say,
It was just a dream, my queen. Go back to sleep.
Instead she slipped into a hooded robe and stepped out onto her terrace. She went to the
parapet and stood there gazing down upon the city as she had done a hundred times before. It will
never be my city. It will never be my home.
The pale pink light of dawn found her still out on her terrace, asleep upon the grass beneath a
blanket of fine dew. I promised Daario that I would hold court today, Daenerys told her handmaids
when they woke her. Help me find my crown. Oh, and some clothes to wear, something light and cool.
She made her descent an hour later. All kneel for Daenerys Stormborn, the Unburnt, Queen of
Meereen, Queen of the Andals and the Rhoynar and the First Men, Khaleesi of Great Grass Sea, Breaker
of Shackles and Mother of Dragons, Missandei called.
Reznak mo Reznak bowed and beamed. Magnificence, every day you grow more beautiful. I
think the prospect of your wedding has given you a glow. Oh, my shining queen!
Dany sighed. Summon the first petitioner.
It had been so long since she last held court that the crush of cases was almost overwhelming.
The back of the hall was a solid press of people, and scuffles broke out over precedence. Inevitably it
was Galazza Galare who stepped forward, her head held high, her face hidden behind a shimmering
green veil. Your Radiance, it might be best were we to speak in private.
Would that I had the time, said Dany sweetly. I am to be wed upon the morrow. Her last
meeting with the Green Grace had not gone well. What would you have of me?
I would speak to you about the presumption of a certain sellsword captain.
She dares say that in open court? Dany felt a blaze of anger. She has courage, I grant that, but if
she thinks I am about to suffer another scolding, she could not be more wrong. The treachery of Brown
Ben Plumm has shocked us all, she said, but your warning comes too late. And now I know you will
want to return to your temple to pray for peace.
The Green Grace bowed. I shall pray for you as well.
Another slap, thought Dany, color rising to her face.
The rest was a tedium the queen knew well. She sat upon her cushions, listening, one foot
jiggling with impatience. Jhiqui brought a platter of figs and ham at midday. There seemed to be no end
to the petitioners. For every two she sent off smiling, one left red-eyed or muttering.

It was close to sunset before Daario Naharis appeared with his new Stormcrows, the Westerosi
who had come over to him from the Wind-blown. Dany found herself glancing at them as yet another
petitioner droned on and on. These are my people. I am their rightful queen. They seemed a scruffy
bunch, but that was only to be expected of sellswords. The youngest could not have been more than a
year older than her; the oldest must have seen sixty namedays. A few sported signs of wealth: gold arm
rings, silken tunics, silver-studded sword belts. Plunder. For the most part, their clothes were plainly
made and showed signs of hard wear.
When Daario brought them forward, she saw that one of them was a woman, big and blond and
all in mail. Pretty Meris, her captain named her, though pretty was the last thing Dany would have
called her. She was six feet tall and earless, with a slit nose, deep scars in both cheeks, and the coldest
eyes the queen had ever seen. As for the rest 
Hugh Hungerford was slim and saturnine, long-legged, long-faced, clad in faded finery. Webber
was short and muscular, with spiders tattooed across his head and chest and arms. Red-faced Orson
Stone claimed to be a knight, as did lanky Lucifer Long. Will of the Woods leered at her even as he took a
knee. Dick Straw had cornflower-blue eyes, hair as white as flax, and an unsettling smile. Ginger Jacks
face was hidden behind a bristly orange beard, and his speech was unintelligible. He bit off half his
tongue in his first battle, Hungerford explained to her.
The Dornishmen seemed different. If it please Your Grace, said Daario, these three are
Greenguts, Gerrold, and Frog.
Greenguts was huge and bald as a stone, with arms thick enough to rival even Strong Belwas.
Gerrold was a lean, tall youth with sun streaks in his hair and laughing blue-green eyes. That smile has
won many a maidens heart, Ill wager. His cloak was made of soft brown wool lined with sandsilk, a
goodly garment.
Frog, the squire, was the youngest of the three, and the least impressive, a solemn, stocky lad,
brown of hair and eye. His face was squarish, with a high forehead, heavy jaw, and broad nose. The
stubble on his cheeks and chin made him look like a boy trying to grow his first beard. Dany had no
inkling why anyone would call him Frog. Perhaps he can jump farther than the others.
You may rise, she said. Daario tells me you come to us from Dorne. Dornishmen will always
have a welcome at my court. Sunspear stayed loyal to my father when the Usurper stole his throne. You
must have faced many perils to reach me.
Too many, said Gerrold, the handsome one with the sun-streaked hair. We were six when we
left Dorne, Your Grace.
I am sorry for your losses. The queen turned to his large companion. Greenguts is a queer
sort of name.
A jape, Your Grace. From the ships. I was greensick the whole way from Volantis. Heaving and
 well, I shouldnt say.

Dany giggled. I think that I can guess, ser. It is ser, is it not? Daario tells me that you are a
knight.
If it please Your Grace, we are all three knights.
Dany glanced at Daario and saw anger flash across his face. He did not know. I have need of
knights, she said.
Ser Barristans suspicions had awakened. Knighthood is easily claimed this far from Westeros.
Are you prepared to defend that boast with sword or lance?
If need be, said Gerrold, though I will not claim that any of us is the equal of Barristan the
Bold. Your Grace, I beg your pardon, but we have come before you under false names.
I knew someone else who did that once, said Dany, a man called Arstan Whitebeard. Tell me
your true names, then.
Gladly  but if we may beg the queens indulgence, is there some place with fewer eyes and
ears?
Games within games. As you wish. Skahaz, clear my court.
The Shavepate roared out orders. His Brazen Beasts did the rest, herding the other Westerosi
and the rest of the days petitioners from the hall. Her counselors remained.
Now, Dany said, your names.
Handsome young Gerrold bowed. Ser Gerris Drinkwater, Your Grace. My sword is yours.
Greenguts crossed his arms against his chest. And my warhammer. Im Ser Archibald
Yronwood.
And you, ser? the queen asked the boy called Frog.
If it please Your Grace, may I first present my gift?
If you wish, Daenerys said, curious, but as Frog started forward Daario Naharis stepped in
front of him and held out a gloved hand. Give this gift to me.
Stone-faced, the stocky lad bent, unlaced his boot, and drew a yellowed parchment from a
hidden flap within.
This is your gift? A scrap of writing? Daario snatched the parchment out of the Dornishmans
hands and unrolled it, squinting at the seals and signatures. Very pretty, all the gold and ribbons, but I
do not read your Westerosi scratchings.
Bring it to the queen, Ser Barristan commanded. Now.

Dany could feel the anger in the hall. I am only a young girl, and young girls must have their
gifts, she said lightly. Daario, please, you must not tease me. Give it here.
The parchment was written in the Common Tongue. The queen unrolled it slowly, studying the
seals and signatures. When she saw the name Ser Willem Darry, her heart beat a little faster. She read it
over once, and then again.
May we know what it says, Your Grace? asked Ser Barristan. It is a secret pact, Dany said,
made in Braavos when I was just a little girl. Ser Willem Darry signed for us, the man who spirited my
brother and myself away from Dragonstone before the Usurpers men could take us. Prince Oberyn
Martell signed for Dorne, with the Sealord of Braavos as witness. She handed the parchment to Ser
Barristan, so he might read it for himself. The alliance is to be sealed by a marriage, it says. In return for
Dornes help overthrowing the Usurper, my brother Viserys is to take Prince Dorans daughter Arianne
for his queen.
The old knight read the pact slowly. If Robert had known of this, he would have smashed
Sunspear as he once smashed Pyke, and claimed the heads of Prince Doran and the Red Viper  and like
as not, the head of this Dornish princess too.
No doubt that was why Prince Doran chose to keep the pact a secret, suggested Daenerys. If
my brother Viserys had known that he had a Dornish princess waiting for him, he would have crossed to
Sunspear as soon as he was old enough to wed.
And thereby brought Roberts warhammer down upon himself, and Dorne as well, said Frog.
My father was content to wait for the day that Prince Viserys found his army.
Your father?
Prince Doran. He sank back onto one knee. Your Grace, I have the honor to be Quentyn
Martell, a prince of Dorne and your most leal subject.
Dany laughed.
The Dornish prince flushed red, whilst her own court and counselors gave her puzzled looks.
Radiance? said Skahaz Shavepate, in the Ghiscari tongue. Why do you laugh?
They call him frog, she said, and we have just learned why. In the Seven Kingdoms there are
childrens tales of frogs who turn into enchanted princes when kissed by their true love. Smiling at the
Dornish knights, she switched back to the Common Tongue. Tell me, Prince Quentyn, are you
enchanted?
No, Your Grace.
I feared as much. Neither enchanted nor enchanting, alas. A pity hes the prince, and not the
one with the wide shoulders and the sandy hair. You have come for a kiss, however. You mean to marry

me. Is that the way of it? The gift you bring me is your own sweet self. Instead of Viserys and your sister,
you and I must seal this pact if I want Dorne.
My father hoped that you might find me acceptable.
Daario Naharis gave a scornful laugh. I say you are a pup. The queen needs a man beside her,
not a mewling boy. You are no fit husband for a woman such as her. When you lick your lips, do you still
taste your mothers milk?
Ser Gerris Drinkwater darkened at his words. Mind your tongue, sellsword. You are speaking to
a prince of Dorne.
And to his wet nurse, I am thinking. Daario brushed his thumbs across his sword hilts and
smiled dangerously.
Skahaz scowled, as only he could scowl. This boy might serve for Dorne, but Meereen needs a
king of Ghiscari blood.
I know of this Dorne, said Reznak mo Reznak. Dorne is sand and scorpions, and bleak red
mountains baking in the sun.
Prince Quentyn answered him. Dorne is fifty thousand spears and swords, pledged to our
queens service.
Fifty thousand? mocked Daario. I count three.
Enough, Daenerys said. Prince Quentyn has crossed half the world to offer me his gift, I will
not have him treated with discourtesy. She turned to the Dornishmen. Would that you had come a
year ago. I am pledged to wed the noble Hizdahr zo Loraq.
Ser Gerris said, It is not too late
I will be the judge of that, Daenerys said. Reznak, see that the prince and his companions are
given quarters suitable to their high birth, and that their wants are attended to.
As you wish, Your Radiance.
The queen rose. Then we are done for now.
Daario and Ser Barristan followed her up the steps to her apartments. This changes
everything, the old knight said.
This changes nothing, Dany said, as Irri removed her crown. What good are three men?
Three knights, said Selmy. Three liars, Daario said darkly. They deceived me.

And bought you too, I do not doubt. He did not trouble to deny it. Dany unrolled the
parchment and examined it again. Braavos. This was done in Braavos, while we were living in the house
with the red door. Why did that make her feel so strange?
She found herself remembering her nightmare. Sometimes there is truth in dreams. Could
Hizdahr zo Loraq be working for the warlocks, was that what the dream had meant? Could the dream
have been a sending? Were the gods telling her to put Hizdahr aside and wed this Dornish prince
instead? Something tickled at her memory. Ser Barristan, what are the arms of House Martell?
A sun in splendor, transfixed by a spear.
The suns son. A shiver went through her. Shadows and whispers. What else had Quaithe said?
The pale mare and the suns son. There was a lion in it too, and a dragon. Or am I the dragon? Beware
the perfumed seneschal. That she remembered. Dreams and prophecies. Why must they always be in
riddles? I hate this. Oh, leave me, ser. Tomorrow is my wedding day.
That night Daario had her every way a man can have a woman, and she gave herself to him
willingly. The last time, as the sun was coming up, she used her mouth to make him hard again, as
Doreah had taught her long ago, then rode him so wildly that his wound began to bleed again, and for
one sweet heartbeat she could not tell whether he was inside of her, or her inside of him.
But when the sun rose upon her wedding day so did Daario Naharis, donning his clothes and
buckling on his sword belt with its gleaming golden wantons. Where are you going? Dany asked him. I
forbid you to make a sortie today.
My queen is cruel, her captain said. If I cannot slay your foes, how shall I amuse myself whilst
you are being wed?
By nightfall I shall have no foes.
It is only dawn, sweet queen. The day is long. Time enough for one last sortie. I will bring you
back the head of Brown Ben Plumm for a wedding gift.
No heads, Dany insisted. Once you brought me flowers.
Let Hizdahr bring you flowers. He is not one to stoop and pluck a dandelion, true, but he has
servants who will be pleased to do it for him. Do I have your leave to go?
No. She wanted him to stay and hold her. One day he will go and not return, she thought. One
day some archer will put an arrow through his chest, or ten men will fall on him with spears and swords
and axes, ten would-be heroes. Five of them would die, but that would not make her grief easier to bear.
One day I will lose him, as I lost my sun-and-stars. But please gods, not today. Come back to bed and
kiss me. No one had ever kissed her like Daario Naharis. I am your queen, and I command you to fuck
me.

She had meant it playfully, but Daarios eyes hardened at her words. Fucking queens is kings
work. Your noble Hizdahr can attend to that, once youre wed. And if he proves to be too highborn for
such sweaty work, he has servants who will be pleased to do that for him as well. Or perhaps you can
call the Dornish boy into your bed, and his pretty friend as well, why not? He strode from the
bedchamber.
He is going to make a sortie, Dany realized, and if he takes Ben Plumms head, hell walk into the
wedding feast and throw it at my feet. Seven save me. Why couldnt he be better born?
When he was gone, Missandei brought the queen a simple meal of goat cheese and olives, with
raisins for a sweet. Your Grace needs more than wine to break her fast. You are such a tiny thing, and
you will surely need your strength today.
That made Daenerys laugh, coming from a girl so small. She relied so much on the little scribe
that she oft forgot that Missandei had only turned eleven. They shared the food together on her terrace.
As Dany nibbled on an olive, the Naathi girl gazed at her with eyes like molten gold and said, It is not
too late to tell them that you have decided not to wed.
It is, though, the queen thought, sadly. Hizdahrs blood is ancient and noble. Our joining will
join my freedmen to his people. When we become as one, so will our city.
Your Grace does not love the noble Hizdahr. This one thinks you would sooner have another for
your husband.
I must not think of Daario today. A queen loves where she must, not where she will. Her
appetite had left her. Take this food away, she told Missandei. It is time I bathed.
Afterward, as Jhiqui was patting Daenerys dry, Irri approached with her tokar. Dany envied the
Dothraki maids their loose sandsilk trousers and painted vests. They would be much cooler than her in
her tokar, with its heavy fringe of baby pearls. Help me wind this round myself, please. I cannot
manage all these pearls by myself.
She should be eager with anticipation for her wedding and the night that would follow, she
knew. She remembered the night of her first wedding, when Khal Drogo had claimed her maidenhead
beneath the stranger stars. She remembered how frightened she had been, and how excited. Would it
be the same with Hizdahr? No. I am not the girl I was, and he is not my sun-and-stars.
Missandei reemerged from inside the pyramid. Reznak and Skahaz beg the honor of escorting
Your Grace to the Temple of the Graces. Reznak has ordered your palanquin made ready.
Meereenese seldom rode within their city walls. They preferred palanquins, litters, and sedan
chairs, borne upon the shoulders of their slaves. Horses befoul the streets, one man of Zakh had told
her, slaves do not. Dany had freed the slaves, yet palanquins, litters, and sedan chairs still choked the
streets as before, and none of them floated magically through the air.

The day is too hot to be shut up in a palanquin, said Dany. Have my silver saddled. I would
not go to my lord husband upon the backs of bearers.
Your Grace, said Missandei, this one is so sorry, but you cannot ride in a tokar.
The little scribe was right, as she so often was. The tokar was not a garment meant for
horseback. Dany made a face. As you say. Not the palanquin, though. I would suffocate behind those
drapes. Have them ready a sedan chair. If she must wear her floppy ears, let all the rabbits see her.
When Dany made her descent, Reznak and Skahaz dropped to their knees. Your Worship shines
so brightly, you will blind every man who dares to look upon you, said Reznak. The seneschal wore a
tokar of maroon samite with golden fringes. Hizdahr zo Loraq is most fortunate in you  and you in
him, if I may be so bold as to say. This match will save our city, you will see.
So we pray. I want to plant my olive trees and see them fruit. Does it matter that Hizdahrs
kisses do not please me? Peace will please me. Am I a queen or just a woman?
The crowds will be thick as flies today. The Shavepate was clad in a pleated black skirt and a
muscled breastplate, with a brazen helm shaped like a serpents head beneath one arm.
Should I be afraid of flies? Your Brazen Beasts will keep me safe from any harm.
It was always dusk inside the base of the Great Pyramid. Walls thirty feet thick muffled the
tumult of the streets and kept the heat outside, so it was cool and dim within. Her escort was forming
up inside the gates. Horses, mules, and donkeys were stabled in the western walls, elephants in the
eastern. Dany had acquired three of those huge, queer beasts with her pyramid. They reminded her of
hairless grey mammoths, though their tusks had been bobbed and gilded, and their eyes were sad.
She found Strong Belwas eating grapes, as Barristan Selmy watched a stableboy cinch the girth
on his dapple grey. The three Dornishmen were with him, talking, but they broke off when the queen
appeared. Their prince went to one knee. Your Grace, I must entreat you. My fathers strength is failing,
but his devotion to your cause is as strong as ever. If my manner or my person have displeased you, that
is my sorrow, but
If you would please me, ser, be happy for me, Daenerys said. This is my wedding day. They
will be dancing in the Yellow City, I do not doubt. She sighed. Rise, my prince, and smile. One day I
shall return to West-eros to claim my fathers throne, and look to Dorne for help. But on this day the
Yunkaii have my city ringed in steel. I may die before I see my Seven Kingdoms. Hizdahr may die.
Westeros may be swallowed by the waves. Dany kissed his cheek. Come. Its time I wed.
Ser Barristan helped her up onto her sedan chair. Quentyn rejoined his fellow Dornishmen.
Strong Belwas bellowed for the gates to be opened, and Daenerys Targaryen was carried forth into the
sun. Selmy fell in beside her on his dapple grey.

Tell me, Dany said, as the procession turned toward the Temple of the Graces, if my father
and my mother had been free to follow their own hearts, whom would they have wed?
It was long ago. Your Grace would not know them.
You know, though. Tell me.
The old knight inclined his head. The queen your mother was always mindful of her duty. He
was handsome in his gold-and-silver armor, his white cloak streaming from his shoulders, but he
sounded like a man in pain, as if every word were a stone he had to pass. As a girl, though  she was
once smitten with a young knight from the stormlands who wore her favor at a tourney and named her
queen of love and beauty. A brief thing.
What happened to this knight?
He put away his lance the day your lady mother wed your father. Afterward he became most
pious, and was heard to say that only the Maiden could replace Queen Rhaella in his heart. His passion
was impossible, of course. A landed knight is no fit consort for a princess of royal blood.
And Daario Naharis is only a sellsword, not fit to buckle on the golden spurs of even a landed
knight. And my father? Was there some woman he loved better than his queen?
Ser Barristan shifted in the saddle. Not  not loved. Mayhaps wanted is a better word, but  it
was only kitchen gossip, the whispers of washer-women and stableboys 
I want to know. I never knew my father. I want to know everything about him. The good and 
the rest.
As you command. The white knight chose his words with care. Prince Aerys  as a youth, he
was taken with a certain lady of Casterly Rock, a cousin of Tywin Lannister. When she and Tywin wed,
your father drank too much wine at the wedding feast and was heard to say that it was a great pity that
the lords right to the first night had been abolished. A drunken jape, no more, but Tywin Lannister was
not a man to forget such words, or the  the liberties your father took during the bedding. His face
reddened. I have said too much, Your Grace. I
Gracious queen, well met! Another procession had come up beside her own, and Hizdahr zo
Loraq was smiling at her from his own sedan chair. My king. Dany wondered where Daario Naharis was,
what he was doing. If this were a story, he would gallop up just as we reached the temple, to challenge
Hizdahr for my hand.
Side by side the queens procession and Hizdahr zo Loraqs made their slow way across
Meereen, until finally the Temple of the Graces loomed up before them, its golden domes flashing in the
sun. How beautiful, the queen tried to tell herself, but inside her was some foolish little girl who could
not help but look about for Daario. If he loved you, he would come and carry you off at swordpoint, as
Rhaegar carried off his northern girl, the girl in her insisted, but the queen knew that was folly. Even if

her captain was mad enough to attempt it, the Brazen Beasts would cut him down before he got within
a hundred yards of her.
Galazza Galare awaited them outside the temple doors, surrounded by her sisters in white and
pink and red, blue and gold and purple. There are fewer than there were. Dany looked for Ezzara and did
not see her. Has the bloody flux taken even her? Though the queen had let the Astapori starve outside
her walls to keep the bloody flux from spreading, it was spreading nonetheless. Many had been stricken:
freedmen, sellswords, Brazen Beasts, even Dothraki, though as yet none of the Unsullied had been
touched. She prayed the worst was past.
The Graces brought forth an ivory chair and a golden bowl. Holding her tokar daintily so as not
to tread upon its fringes, Daenerys Targaryen eased herself onto the chairs plush velvet seat, and
Hizdahr zo Loraq went to his knees, unlaced her sandals, and washed her feet whilst fifty eunuchs sang
and ten thousand eyes looked on. He has gentle hands, she mused, as warm fragrant oils ran between
her toes. If he has a gentle heart as well, I may grow fond of him in time.
When her feet were clean, Hizdahr dried them with a soft towel, laced her sandals on again, and
helped her stand. Hand in hand, they followed the Green Grace inside the temple, where the air was
thick with incense and the gods of Ghis stood cloaked in shadows in their alcoves.
Four hours later, they emerged again as man and wife, bound together wrist and ankle with
chains of yellow gold.
JON
Queen Selyse descended upon Castle Black with her daughter and her daughters fool, her
serving girls and lady companions, and a retinue of knights, sworn swords, and men-at-arms fifty strong.
Queens men all, Jon Snow knew. They may attend Selyse, but it is Melisandre they serve. The red
priestess had warned him of their coming almost a day before the raven arrived from Eastwatch with
the same message.
He met the queens party by the stables, accompanied by Satin, Bowen Marsh, and half a dozen
guards in long black cloaks. It would never do to come before this queen without a retinue of his own, if
half of what they said of her was true. She might mistake him for a stableboy and hand him the reins of
her horse.
The snows had finally moved off to the south and given them a respite. There was even a hint of
warmth in the air as Jon Snow took a knee before this southron queen. Your Grace. Castle Black
welcomes you and yours.
Queen Selyse looked down at him. My thanks. Please escort me to your lord commander.

My brothers chose me for that honor. I am Jon Snow.
You? They said you were young, but  Queen Selyses face was pinched and pale. She wore a
crown of red gold with points in the shape of flames, a twin to that worn by Stannis.  you may rise,
Lord Snow. This is my daughter, Shireen.
Princess. Jon inclined his head. Shireen was a homely child, made even uglier by the greyscale
that had left her neck and part of her cheek stiff and grey and cracked. My brothers and I are at your
service, he told the girl.
Shireen reddened. Thank you, my lord.
I believe you are acquainted with my kinsman, Ser Axell Florent? the queen went on.
Only by raven. And report. The letters hed received from Eastwatch-by-the-Sea had a deal to
say of Axell Florent, very little of it good. Ser Axell.
Lord Snow. A stout man, Florent had short legs and a thick chest. Coarse hair covered his
cheeks and jowls and poked from his ears and nostrils.
My loyal knights, Queen Selyse went on. Ser Narbert, Ser Benethon, Ser Brus, Ser Patrek, Ser
Dorden, Ser Malegorn, Ser Lambert, Ser Perkin. Each worthy bowed in turn. She did not trouble to
name her fool, but the cowbells on his antlered hat and the motley tattooed across his puffy cheeks
made him hard to overlook. Patchface. Cotter Pykes letters had made mention of him as well. Pyke
claimed he was a simpleton.
Then the queen beckoned to another curious member of her entourage: a tall gaunt stick of a
man, his height accentuated by an outlandish three-tiered hat of purple felt. And here we have the
honorable Tycho Nestoris, an emissary of the Iron Bank of Braavos, come to treat with His Grace King
Stannis.
The banker doffed his hat and made a sweeping bow. Lord Commander. I thank you and your
brothers for your hospitality. He spoke the Common Tongue flawlessly, with only the slightest hint of
accent. Half a foot taller than Jon, the Braavosi sported a beard as thin as a rope sprouting from his chin
and reaching almost to his waist. His robes were a somber purple, trimmed with ermine. A high stiff
collar framed his narrow face. I hope we shall not inconvenience you too greatly.
Not at all, my lord. You are most welcome. More welcome than this queen, if truth be told.
Cotter Pyke had sent a raven ahead to advise them of the bankers coming. Jon Snow had thought of
little since.
Jon turned back to the queen. The royal chambers in the Kings Tower have been prepared for
Your Grace for so long as you wish to remain with us. This is our Lord Steward, Bowen Marsh. He will
find quarters for your men.

How kind of you to make room for us. The queens words were courteous enough, though her
tone said, It is no more than your duty, and you had best hope these quarters please me. We will not be
with you long. A few days at the most. It is our intent to press on to our new seat at the Nightfort as
soon as we are rested. The journey from Eastwatch was wearisome.
As you say, Your Grace, said Jon. You will be cold and hungry, I am sure. A hot meal awaits
you in our common room.
Very good. The queen glanced about the yard. First, though, we wish to consult with the Lady
Melisandre.
Of course, Your Grace. Her apartments are in the Kings Tower as well. This way, if you will?
Queen Selyse nodded, took her daughter by the hand, and permitted him to lead them from the stables.
Ser Axell, the Braavosi banker, and the rest of her party followed, like so many ducklings done up in
wool and fur.
Your Grace, said Jon Snow, my builders have done all they can to make the Nightfort ready to
receive you  yet much of it remains in ruins. It is a large castle, the largest on the Wall, and we have
only been able to restore a part of it. You might be more comfortable back at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea.
Queen Selyse sniffed. We are done with Eastwatch. We did not like it there. A queen should be
mistress beneath her own roof. We found your Cotter Pyke to be an uncouth and unpleasant man,
quarrelsome and niggardly.
You should hear what Cotter says of you. I am sorry for that, but I fear Your Grace will find
conditions at the Nightfort even less to your liking. We speak of a fortress, not a palace. A grim place,
and cold. Whereas Eastwatch
Eastwatch is not safe. The queen put a hand on her daughters shoulder. This is the kings
true heir. Shireen will one day sit the Iron Throne and rule the Seven Kingdoms. She must be kept from
harm, and Eastwatch is where the attack will come. This Nightfort is the place my husband has chosen
for our seat, and there we shall abide. We oh!
An enormous shadow emerged from behind the shell of the Lord Commanders Tower. Princess
Shireen gave a shriek, and three of the queens knights gasped in harmony. Another swore. Seven save
us, he said, quite forgetting his new red god in his shock.
Dont be afraid, Jon told them. Theres no harm in him, Your Grace. This is Wun Wun.
Wun Weg Wun Dar Wun. The giants voice rumbled like a boulder crashing down a
mountainside. He sank to his knees before them. Even kneeling, he loomed over them. Kneel queen.
Little queen. Words that Leathers had taught him, no doubt.
Princess Shireens eyes went wide as dinner plates. Hes a giant! A real true giant, like from the
stories. But why does he talk so funny?

He only knows a few words of the Common Tongue as yet, said Jon. In their own land, giants
speak the Old Tongue.
Can I touch him?
Best not, her mother warned. Look at him. A filthy creature. The queen turned her frown on
Jon. Lord Snow, what is this bestial creature doing on our side of the Wall?
Wun Wun is a guest of the Nights Watch, as you are.
The queen did not like that answer. Nor did her knights. Ser Axell grimaced in disgust, Ser Brus
gave a nervous titter, Ser Narbert said, I had been told all the giants were dead.
Almost all. Ygritte wept for them. In the dark the dead are dancing. Patchface shuffled his
feet in a grotesque dance step. I know, I know, oh oh oh. At Eastwatch someone had sewn him a
motley cloak of beaver pelts, sheepskins, and rabbit fur. His hat sported antlers hung with bells and long
brown flaps of squirrel fur that hung down over his ears. Every step he took set him to ringing.
Wun Wun gaped at him with fascination, but when the giant reached for him the fool hopped
back away, jingling. Oh no, oh no, oh no. That brought Wun Wun lurching to his feet. The queen
grabbed hold of Princess Shireen and pulled her back, her knights reached for their swords, and
Patchface reeled away in alarm, lost his footing, and plopped down on his arse in a snowdrift.
Wun Wun began to laugh. A giants laughter could put to shame a dragons roar. Patchface
covered his ears, Princess Shireen pressed her face into her mothers furs, and the boldest of the
queens knights moved forward, steel in hand. Jon raised an arm to block his path. You do not want to
anger him. Sheathe your steel, ser. Leathers, take Wun Wun back to Hardins.
Eat now, Wun Wun? asked the giant. Eat now, Jon agreed. To Leathers he said, Ill send out
a bushel of vegetables for him and meat for you. Start a fire.
Leathers grinned. I will, mlord, but Hardins is bone cold. Perhaps mlord could send out some
wine to warm us?
For you. Not him. Wun Wun had never tasted wine until he came to Castle Black, but once he
had, he had taken a gigantic liking to it. Too much a liking. Jon had enough to contend with just now
without adding a drunken giant to the mix. He turned back to the queens knights. My lord father used
to say a man should never draw his sword unless he means to use it.
Using it was my intent. The knight was clean-shaved and windburnt; beneath a cloak of white
fur he wore a cloth-of-silver surcoat emblazoned with a blue five-pointed star. I had been given to
understand that the Nights Watch defended the realm against such monsters. No one mentioned
keeping them as pets.
Another bloody southron fool. You are  ?

Ser Patrek of Kings Mountain, if it please my lord.
I do not know how you observe guest right on your mountain, ser. In the north we hold it
sacred. Wun Wun is a guest here.
Ser Patrek smiled. Tell me, Lord Commander, should the Others turn up, do you plan to offer
hospitality to them as well? The knight turned to his queen. Your Grace, that is the Kings Tower there,
if I am not mistaken. If I may have the honor?
As you wish. The queen took his arm and swept past the men of the Nights Watch with never
a second glance.
Those flames on her crown are the warmest thing about her. Lord Tycho, Jon called. A
moment, please.
The Braavosi halted. No lord I. Only a simple servant of the Iron Bank of Braavos.
Cotter Pyke informs me that you came to Eastwatch with three ships. A galleas, a galley, and a
cog.
Just so, my lord. The crossing can be perilous in this season. One ship alone may founder,
where three together may aid one another. The Iron Bank is always prudent in such matters.
Perhaps before you leave we might have a quiet word?
I am at your service, Lord Commander. And in Braavos we say there is no time like the present.
Will that suit?
As good as any. Shall we repair to my solar, or would you like to see the top of the Wall?
The banker glanced up, to where the ice loomed vast and pale against the sky. I fear it will be
bitter cold up top.
That, and windy. You learn to walk well away from the edge. Men have been blown off. Still.
The Wall is like nothing else on earth. You may never have another chance to see it.
No doubt I shall rue my caution upon my deathbed, but after a long day in the saddle, a warm
room sounds preferable to me.
My solar, then. Satin, some mulled wine, if you would.
Jons rooms behind the armory were quiet enough, if not especially warm. His fire had gone out
some time ago; Satin was not as diligent in feeding it as Dolorous Edd had been. Mormonts raven
greeted them with a shriek of Corn! Jon hung up his cloak. You come seeking Stannis, is that correct?

It is, my lord. Queen Selyse has suggested that we might send word to Deepwood Motte by
raven, to inform His Grace that I await his pleasure at the Nightfort. The matter that I mean to put to
him is too delicate to entrust to letters.
A debt. What else could it be? His own debt? Or his brothers?
The banker pressed his fingers together. It would not be proper for me to discuss Lord Stanniss
indebtedness or lack of same. As to King Robert  it was indeed our pleasure to assist His Grace in his
need. For so long as Robert lived, all was well. Now, however, the Iron Throne has ceased all
repayment.
Could the Lannisters truly be so foolish? You cannot mean to hold Stannis responsible for his
brothers debts.
The debts belong to the Iron Throne, Tycho declared, and whoso-ever sits on that chair must
pay them. Since young King Tommen and his counsellors have become so obdurate, we mean to broach
the subject with King Stannis. Should he prove himself more worthy of our trust, it would of course be
our great pleasure to lend him whatever help he needs.
Help, the raven screamed. Help, help, help.
Much of this Jon had surmised the moment he learned that the Iron Bank had sent an envoy to
the Wall. When last we heard, His Grace was marching on Winterfell to confront Lord Bolton and his
allies. You may seek him there if you wish, though that carries a risk. You could find yourself caught up in
his war.
Tycho bowed his head. We who serve the Iron Bank face death full as often as you who serve
the Iron Throne.
Is that whom I serve? Jon Snow was no longer certain. I can provide you with horses,
provisions, guides, whatever is required to get you as far as Deepwood Motte. From there you will need
to make your own way to Stannis. And you may well find his head upon a spike. There will be a price.
Price, screamed Mormonts raven. Price, price. There is always a price, is there not? The
Braavosi smiled. What does the Watch require?
Your ships, for a start. With their crews.
All three? How will I return to Braavos?
I only need them for a single voyage.
A hazardous voyage, I assume. For a start, you said?
We need a loan as well. Gold enough to keep us fed till spring. To buy food and hire ships to
bring it to us.

Spring? Tycho sighed. It is not possible, my lord.
What was it Stannis had said to him? You haggle like a crone with a codfish, Lord Snow. Did Lord
Eddard father you on a fishwife? Perhaps he had at that.
It took the better part of an hour before the impossible became possible, and another hour
before they could agree on terms. The flagon of mulled wine that Satin delivered helped them settle the
more nettlesome points. By the time Jon Snow signed the parchment the Braavosi drew up, both of
them were half-drunk and quite unhappy. Jon thought that a good sign.
The three Braavosi ships would bring the fleet at Eastwatch up to eleven, including the Ibbenese
whaler that Cotter Pyke had commandeered on Jons order, a trading galley out of Pentos similarly
impressed, and three battered Lysene warships, remnants of Salladhor Saans former fleet driven back
north by the autumn storms. All three of Saans ships had been in dire need of refitting, but by now the
work should be complete.
Eleven ships was no wise enough, but if he waited any longer, the free folk at Hardhome would
be dead by the time the rescue fleet arrived. Sail now or not at all. Whether Mother Mole and her
people would be desperate enough to entrust their lives to the Nights Watch, though 
The day had darkened by the time he and Tycho Nestoris left the solar. Snow had begun to fall.
Our respite was a brief one, it would seem. Jon drew his cloak about himself more tightly.
Winter is nigh upon us. The day I left Braavos, there was ice on the canals.
Three of my men passed through Braavos not long ago, Jon told him. An old maester, a
singer, and a young steward. They were escorting a wildling girl and her child to Oldtown. I do not
suppose you chanced to encounter them?
I fear not, my lord. Westerosi pass through Braavos every day, but most come and go from the
Ragmans Harbor. The ships of the Iron Bank moor at the Purple Harbor. If you wish, I can make inquiries
after them when I return home.
No need. By now they should be safe in Oldtown.
Let us hope so. The narrow sea is perilous this time of year, and of late there have been
troubling reports of strange ships seen amongst the Step-stones.
Salladhor Saan?
The Lysene pirate? Some say he has returned to his old haunts, this is so. And Lord Redwynes
war fleet creeps through the Broken Arm as well.
On its way home, no doubt. But these men and their ships are well-known to us. No, these other
sails  from farther east, perhaps  one hears queer talk of dragons.
Would that we had one here. A dragon might warm things up a bit.

My lord jests. You will forgive me if I do not laugh. We Braavosi are descended from those who
fled Valyria and the wroth of its dragonlords. We do not jape of dragons.
No, I suppose not. My apologies, Lord Tycho.
None is required, Lord Commander. Now I find that I am hungry. Lending such large sums of
gold will give a man an appetite. Will you be so good as to point me to your feast hall?
I will take you there myself. Jon gestured. This way.
Once there, it would have been discourteous not to break bread with the banker, so Jon sent
Satin off to fetch them food. The novelty of newcomers had brought out almost all the men who were
not on duty or asleep, so the cellar was crowded and warm.
The queen herself was absent, as was her daughter. By now presumably they were settling into
the Kings Tower. But Ser Brus and Ser Malegorn were on hand, entertaining such brothers as had
gathered with the latest tidings from Eastwatch and beyond the sea. Three of the queens ladies sat
together, attended by their serving maids and a dozen admiring men of the Nights Watch.
Nearer the door, the Queens Hand was attacking a brace of capons, sucking the meat off the
bones and washing down each bite with ale. When he espied Jon Snow, Axell Florent tossed a bone
aside, wiped his mouth with the back of his hand, and sauntered over. With his bowed legs, barrel chest,
and prominent ears, he presented a comical appearance, but Jon knew better than to laugh at him. He
was an uncle to Queen Selyse and had been among the first to follow her in accepting Melisandres red
god. If he is not a kinslayer, he is the next best thing. Axell Florents brother had been burned by
Melisandre, Maester Aemon had informed him, yet Ser Axell had done little and less to stop it. What
sort of man can stand by idly and watch his own brother being burned alive?
Nestoris, said Ser Axell, and the lord commander. Might I join you? He lowered himself to
the bench before they could reply. Lord Snow, if I may ask  this wildling princess His Grace King
Stannis wrote of  where might she be, my lord?
Long leagues from here, Jon thought. If the gods are good, by now she has found Tormund
Giantsbane. Val is the younger sister of Dalla, who was Mance Rayders wife and mother to his son.
King Stannis took Val and the child captive after Dalla died in childbed, but she is no princess, not as you
mean it.
Ser Axell shrugged. Whatever she may be, at Eastwatch men claimed the wench was fair. Id
like to see with mine own eyes. Some of these wildling women, well, a man would need to turn them
over to do his duty as a husband. If it please the lord commander, bring her out, let us have a look.
She is not a horse to be paraded for inspection, ser.
I promise not to count her teeth. Florent grinned. Oh, never fear, Ill treat her with all the
courtesy she is due.

He knows I do not have her. A village has no secrets, and no more did Castle Black. Vals absence
was not spoken of openly, but some men knew, and in the common hall at night the brothers talked.
What has he heard? Jon wondered. How much does he believe? Forgive me, ser, but Val will not be
joining us.
Ill go to her. Where do you keep the wench?
Away from you. Somewhere safe. Enough, ser.
The knights face grew flushed. My lord, have you forgotten who I am? His breath smelled of
ale and onions. Must I speak to the queen? A word from Her Grace and I can have this wildling girl
delivered naked to the hall for our inspection.
That would be a pretty trick, even for a queen. The queen would never presume upon our
hospitality, Jon said, hoping that was true. Now I fear I must take my leave, before I forget the duties
of a host. Lord Tycho, pray excuse me.
Yes, of course, the banker said. A pleasure.
Outside, the snow was coming down more heavily. Across the yard the Kings Tower had turned
into a hulking shadow, the lights in its windows obscured by falling snow.
Back in his solar, Jon found the Old Bears raven perched on the back of the oak-and-leather
chair behind the trestle table. The bird began to scream for food the moment he entered. Jon took a
fistful of dried kernels from the sack by the door and scattered them on the floor, then claimed the
chair.
Tycho Nestoris had left behind a copy of their agreement. Jon read it over thrice. That was
simple, he reflected. Simpler than I dared hope. Simpler than it should have been.
It gave him an uneasy feeling. Braavosi coin would allow the Nights Watch to buy food from the
south when their own stores ran short, food enough to see them through the winter, however long it
might prove to be. A long hard winter will leave the Watch so deep in debt that we will never climb out,
Jon reminded himself, but when the choice is debt or death, best borrow.
He did not have to like it, though. And come spring, when the time came to repay all that gold,
he would like it even less. Tycho Nestoris had impressed him as cultured and courteous, but the Iron
Bank of Braavos had a fearsome reputation when collecting debts. Each of the Nine Free Cities had its
bank, and some had more than one, fighting over every coin like dogs over a bone, but the Iron Bank
was richer and more powerful than all the rest combined. When princes defaulted on their debts to
lesser banks, ruined bankers sold their wives and children into slavery and opened their own veins.
When princes failed to repay the Iron Bank, new princes sprang up from nowhere and took their
thrones.

As poor plump Tommen may be about to learn. No doubt the Lannisters had good reason for
refusing to honor King Roberts debts, but it was folly all the same. If Stannis was not too stiff-necked to
accept their terms, the Braavosi would give him all the gold and silver he required, coin enough to buy a
dozen sellsword companies, to bribe a hundred lords, to keep his men paid, fed, clothed, and armed.
Unless Stannis is lying dead beneath the walls of Winterfell, he may just have won the Iron Throne. He
wondered if Melisandre had seen that in her fires.
Jon sat back, yawned, stretched. On the morrow he would draft orders for Cotter Pyke. Eleven
ships to Hardhome. Bring back as many as you can, women and children first. It was time they set sail.
Should I go myself, though, or leave it to Cotter? The Old Bear had led a ranging. Aye. And never
returned.
Jon closed his eyes. Just for a moment   and woke, stiff as a board, with the Old Bears raven
muttering, Snow, Snow, and Mully shaking him. Mlord, youre wanted. Beg pardon, mlord. A girls
been found.
A girl? Jon sat, rubbing the sleep from his eyes with the back of his hands. Val? Has Val
returned?
Not Val, mlord. This side of the Wall, it were.
Arya. Jon straightened. It had to be her. Girl, screamed the raven. Girl, girl. Ty and Dannel
came on her two leagues south of Moles Town. They were chasing down some wildlings who
scampered off down the king-sroad. Brought them back as well, but then they come on the girl. Shes
highborn, mlord, and shes been asking for you.
How many with her? He moved to his basin, splashed water on his face. Gods, but he was
tired.
None, mlord. She come alone. Her horse was dying under her. All skin and ribs it was, lame
and lathered. They cut it loose and took the girl for questioning.
A grey girl on a dying horse. Melisandres fires had not lied, it would seem. But what had
become of Mance Rayder and his spearwives? Where is the girl now?
Maester Aemons chambers, mlord. The men of Castle Black still called it that, though by now
the old maester should be warm and safe in Oldtown. Girl was blue from the cold, shivering like all get
out, so Ty wanted Clydas to have a look at her.
Thats good. Jon felt fifteen years old again. Little sister. He rose and donned his cloak.
The snow was still falling as he crossed the yard with Mully. A golden dawn was breaking in the
east, but behind Lady Melisandres window in the Kings Tower a reddish light still flickered. Does she
never sleep? What game are you playing, priestess? Did you have some other task for Mance?

He wanted to believe it would be Arya. He wanted to see her face again, to smile at her and
muss her hair, to tell her she was safe. She wont be safe, though. Winterfell is burned and broken and
there are no more safe places.
He could not keep her here with him, no matter how much he might want to. The Wall was no
place for a woman, much less a girl of noble birth. Nor was he about to turn her over to Stannis or
Melisandre. The king would only want to marry her to one of his own men, Horpe or Massey or Godry
Giantslayer, and the gods alone knew what use the red woman might want to make of her.
The best solution he could see would mean dispatching her to Eastwatch and asking Cotter Pyke
to put her on a ship to someplace across the sea, beyond the reach of all these quarrelsome kings. It
would need to wait until the ships returned from Hardhome, to be sure. She could return to Braavos
with Tycho Nestoris. Perhaps the Iron Bank could help find some noble family to foster her. Braavos was
the nearest of the Free Cities, though  which made it both the best and the worst choice. Lorath or the
Port of Ibben might be safer. Wherever he might send her, though, Arya would need silver to support
her, a roof above her head, someone to protect her. She was only a child.
Maester Aemons old chambers were so warm that the sudden cloud of steam when Mully
pulled the door open was enough to blind the both of them. Within, a fresh fire was burning in the
hearth, the logs crackling and spitting. Jon stepped over a puddle of damp clothing. Snow, Snow,
Snow, the ravens called down from above. The girl was curled up near the fire, wrapped in a black
woolen cloak three times her size and fast asleep.
She looked enough like Arya to give him pause, but only for a moment. A tall, skinny, coltish girl,
all legs and elbows, her brown hair was woven in a thick braid and bound about with strips of leather.
She had a long face, a pointy chin, small ears.
But she was too old, far too old. This girl is almost of an age with me. Has she eaten? Jon
asked Mully.
Only bread and broth, my lord. Clydas rose from a chair. It is best to go slow, Maester Aemon
always said. Any more and she might not have been able to digest it.
Mully nodded. Dannel had one o Hobbs sausages and offered her a bite, but she wouldnt
touch it.
Jon could not blame her for that. Hobbs sausages were made of grease and salt and things that
did not bear thinking about. Perhaps we should just let her rest.
That was when the girl sat up, clutching the cloak to her small, pale breasts. She looked
confused. Where  ?
Castle Black, my lady.
The Wall. Her eyes filled up with tears. Im here.

Clydas moved closer. Poor child. How old are you?
Sixteen on my next nameday. And no child, but a woman grown and flowered. She yawned,
covered her mouth with the cloak. One bare knee peeked through its folds. You do not wear a chain.
Are you a maester?
No, said Clydas, but I have served one.
She does look a bit like Arya, Jon thought. Starved and skinny, but her hairs the same color, and
her eyes. I am told you have been asking after me. I am
Jon Snow. The girl tossed her braid back. My house and yours are bound in blood and
honor. Hear me, kinsman. My uncle Cregan is hard upon my trail. You must not let him take me back to
Karhold.
Jon was staring. I know this girl. There was something about her eyes, the way she held herself,
the way she talked. For a moment the memory eluded him. Then it came. Alys Karstark.
That brought the ghost of a smile to her lips. I was not sure you would remember. I was six the
last time you saw me.
You came to Winterfell with your father. The father Robb beheaded. I dont recall what for.
She blushed. So I could meet your brother. Oh, there was some other pretext, but that was the
real reason. I was almost of an age with Robb, and my father thought we might make a match. There
was a feast. I danced with you and your brother both. He was very courteous and said that I danced
beautifully. You were sullen. My father said that was to be expected in a bastard.
I remember. It was only half a lie. Youre still a little sullen, the girl said, but I will forgive
you that if you will save me from my uncle.
Your uncle  would that be Lord Arnolf?
He is no lord, Alys said scornfully. My brother Harry is the rightful lord, and by law I am his
heir. A daughter comes before an uncle. Uncle Arnolf is only castellan. Hes my great-uncle, actually, my
fathers uncle. Cregan is his son. I suppose that makes him a cousin, but we always called him uncle.
Now they mean to make me call him husband. She made a fist. Before the war I was betrothed to
Daryn Hornwood. We were only waiting till I flowered to be wed, but the Kingslayer killed Daryn in the
Whispering Wood. My father wrote that he would find some southron lord to wed me, but he never did.
Your brother Robb cut off his head for killing Lannisters. Her mouth twisted. I thought the whole
reason they marched south was to kill some Lannisters.
It was  not so simple as that. Lord Karstark slew two prisoners, my lady. Unarmed boys,
squires in a cell.

The girl did not seem surprised. My father never bellowed like the Greatjon, but he was no less
dangerous in his wroth. He is dead now too, though. So is your brother. But you and I are here, still
living. Is there blood feud between us, Lord Snow?
When a man takes the black he puts his feuds behind him. The Nights Watch has no quarrel
with Karhold, nor with you.
Good. I was afraid  I begged my father to leave one of my brothers as castellan, but none of
them wished to miss the glory and ransoms to be won in the south. Now Torr and Edd are dead. Harry
was a prisoner at Maidenpool when last we heard, but that was almost a year ago. He may be dead as
well. I did not know where else to turn but to the last son of Eddard Stark.
Why not the king? Karhold declared for Stannis.
My uncle declared for Stannis, in hopes it might provoke the Lannisters to take poor Harrys
head. Should my brother die, Karhold should pass to me, but my uncles want my birthright for their
own. Once Cregan gets a child by me they wont need me anymore. Hes buried two wives already. She
rubbed away a tear angrily, the way Arya might have done it. Will you help me?
Marriages and inheritance are matters for the king, my lady. I will write to Stannis on your
behalf, but
Alys Karstark laughed, but it was the laughter of despair. Write, but do not look for a reply.
Stannis will be dead before he gets your message. My uncle will see to that.
What do you mean?
Arnolf is rushing to Winterfell, tis true, but only so he might put his dagger in your kings back.
He cast his lot with Roose Bolton long ago  for gold, the promise of a pardon, and poor Harrys head.
Lord Stannis is marching to a slaughter. So he cannot help me, and would not even if he could. Alys
knelt before him, clutching the black cloak. You are my only hope, Lord Snow. In your fathers name, I
beg you. Protect me.
THE BLIND GIRL
Her nights were lit by distant stars and the shimmer of moonlight on snow, but every dawn she
woke to darkness.
She opened her eyes and stared up blind at the black that shrouded her, her dream already
fading. So beautiful. She licked her lips, remembering. The bleating of the sheep, the terror in the
shepherds eyes, the sound the dogs had made as she killed them one by one, the snarling of her pack.
Game had become scarcer since the snows began to fall, but last night they had feasted. Lamb and dog

and mutton and the flesh of man. Some of her little grey cousins were afraid of men, even dead men,
but not her. Meat was meat, and men were prey. She was the night wolf.
But only when she dreamed.
The blind girl rolled onto her side, sat up, sprang to her feet, stretched. Her bed was a
rag-stuffed mattress on a shelf of cold stone, and she was always stiff and tight when she awakened. She
padded to her basin on small, bare, callused feet, silent as a shadow, splashed cool water on her face,
patted herself dry. Ser Gregor, she thought. Dunsen, Raff the Sweetling. Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, Queen
Cersei. Her morning prayer. Or was it? No, she thought, not mine. I am no one. That is the night wolfs
prayer. Someday she will find them, hunt them, smell their fear, taste their blood. Someday.
She found her smallclothes in a pile, sniffed at them to make sure they were fresh enough to
wear, donned them in her darkness. Her servants garb was where shed hung ita long tunic of undyed
wool, roughspun and scratchy. She snapped it out and pulled it down over her head with one smooth
practiced motion. Socks came last. One black, one white. The black one had stitching round the top, the
white none; she could feel which was which, make sure she got each sock on the right leg. Skinny as
they were, her legs were strong and springy and growing longer every day.
She was glad of that. A water dancer needs good legs. Blind Beth was no water dancer, but she
would not be Beth forever.
She knew the way to the kitchens, but her nose would have led her there even if she hadnt. Hot
peppers and fried fish, she decided, sniffing down the hall, and bread fresh from Ummas oven. The
smells made her belly rumble. The night wolf had feasted, but that would not fill the blind girls belly.
Dream meat could not nourish her, she had learned that early on.
She broke her fast on sardines, fried crisp in pepper oil and served so hot they burned her
fingers. She mopped up the leftover oil with a chunk of bread torn off the end of Ummas morning loaf
and washed it all down with a cup of watered wine, savoring the tastes and the smells, the rough feel of
the crust beneath her fingers, the slickness of the oil, the sting of the hot pepper when it got into the
half-healed scrape on the back of the hand. Hear, smell, taste, feel, she reminded herself. There are
many ways to know the world for those who cannot see.
Someone had entered the room behind her, moving on soft padded slippers quiet as a mouse.
Her nostrils flared. The kindly man. Men had a different smell than women, and there was a hint of
orange in the air as well. The priest was fond of chewing orange rinds to sweeten his breath, whenever
he could get them.
And who are you this morning? she heard him ask, as he took his seat at the head of the table.
Tap, tap, she heard, then a tiny crackling sound. Breaking his first egg.
No one, she replied. A lie. I know you. You are that blind beggar girl.

Beth. She had known a Beth once, back at Winterfell when she was Arya Stark. Maybe that
was why shed picked the name. Or maybe it was just because it went so well with blind.
Poor child, said the kindly man. Would you like to have your eyes back? Ask, and you shall
see.
He asked the same question every morning. I may want them on the morrow. Not today. Her
face was still water, hiding all, revealing nothing.
As you will. She could hear him peeling the egg, then a faint silvery clink as he picked up the
salt spoon. He liked his eggs well salted. Where did my poor blind girl go begging last night?
The Inn of the Green Eel.
And what three new things do you know that you did not know when last you left us?
The Sealord is still sick.
This is no new thing. The Sealord was sick yesterday, and he will still be sick upon the morrow.
Or dead.
When he is dead, that will be a new thing.
When he is dead, there will be a choosing, and the knives will come out. That was the way of it in
Braavos. In Westeros, a dead king was followed by his eldest son, but the Braavosi had no kings. Tormo
Fregar will be the new sealord.
Is that what they are saying at the Inn of the Green Eel?
Yes.
The kindly man took a bite of his egg. The girl heard him chewing. He never spoke with his
mouth full. He swallowed, and said, Some men say there is wisdom in wine. Such men are fools. At
other inns other names are being bruited about, never doubt. He took another bite of egg, chewed,
swallowed. What three new things do you know, that you did not know before?
I know that some men are saying that Tormo Fregar will surely be the new sealord, she
answered. Some drunken men.
Better. And what else do you know?
It is snowing in the riverlands, in Westeros, she almost said. But he would have asked her how
she knew that, and she did not think that he would like her answer. She chewed her lip, thinking back to
last night. The whore Svrone is with child. She is not certain of the father, but thinks it might have been
that Tyroshi sellsword that she killed.
This is good to know. What else?

The Merling Queen has chosen a new Mermaid to take the place of the one that drowned. She
is the daughter of a Prestayn serving maid, thirteen and penniless, but lovely.
So are they all, at the beginning, said the priest, but you cannot know that she is lovely unless
you have seen her with your own eyes, and you have none. Who are you, child?
No one.
Blind Beth the beggar girl is who I see. She is a wretched liar, that one. See to your duties. Valar
morghulis.
Valar dohaeris. She gathered up her bowl and cup, knife and spoon, and pushed to her feet.
Last of all she grasped her stick. It was five feet long, slender and supple, thick as her thumb, with
leather wrapped around the shaft a foot from the top. Better than eyes, once you learn how to use it,
the waif had told her.
That was a lie. They often lied to her, to test her. No stick was better than a pair of eyes. It was
good to have, though, so she always kept it close. Umma had taken to calling her Stick, but names did
not matter. She was her. No one. I am no one. Just a blind girl, just a servant of Him of Many Faces.
Each night at supper the waif brought her a cup of milk and told her to drink it down. The drink
had a queer, bitter taste that the blind girl soon learned to loathe. Even the faint smell that warned her
what it was before it touched her tongue soon made her feel like retching, but she drained the cup all
the same.
How long must I be blind? she would ask. Until darkness is as sweet to you as light, the waif
would say, or until you ask us for your eyes. Ask and you shall see.
And then you will send me away. Better blind than that. They would not make her yield.
On the day she had woken blind, the waif took her by the hand and led her through the vaults
and tunnels of the rock on which the House of Black and White was built, up the steep stone steps into
the temple proper. Count the steps as you climb, she had said. Let your fingers brush the wall. There
are markings there, invisible to the eye, plain to the touch.
That was her first lesson. There had been many more.
Poisons and potions were for the afternoons. She had smell and touch and taste to help her, but
touch and taste could be perilous when grinding poisons, and with some of the waifs more toxic
concoctions even smell was less than safe. Burned pinky tips and blistered lips became familiar to her,
and once she made herself so sick she could not keep down any food for days.
Supper was for language lessons. The blind girl understood Braavosi and could speak it passably,
she had even lost most of her barbaric accent, but the kindly man was not content. He was insisting that
she improve her High Valyrian and learn the tongues of Lys and Pentos too.

In the evening she played the lying game with the waif, but without eyes to see the game was
very different. Sometimes all she had to go on was tone and choice of words; other times the waif
allowed her to lay hands upon her face. At first the game was much, much harder, the next thing to
impossible  but just when she was near the point of screaming with frustration, it all became much
easier. She learned to hear the lies, to feel them in the play of the muscles around the mouth and eyes.
Many of her other duties had remained the same, but as she went about them she stumbled
over furnishings, walked into walls, dropped trays, got hopelessly helplessly lost inside the temple. Once
she almost fell head-long down the steps, but Syrio Forel had taught her balance in another lifetime,
when she was the girl called Arya, and somehow she recovered and caught herself in time.
Some nights she might have cried herself to sleep if she had still been Arry or Weasel or Cat, or
even Arya of House Stark  but no one had no tears. Without eyes, even the simplest task was perilous.
She burned herself a dozen times as she worked with Umma in the kitchens. Once, chopping onions, she
cut her finger down to the bone. Twice she could not even find her own room in the cellar and had to
sleep on the floor at the base of the steps. All the nooks and alcoves made the temple treacherous, even
after the blind girl had learned to use her ears; the way her footsteps bounced off the ceiling and
echoed round the legs of the thirty tall stone gods made the walls themselves seem to move, and the
pool of still black water did strange things to sound as well.
You have five senses, the kindly man said. Learn to use the other four, you will have fewer
cuts and scrapes and scabs.
She could feel air currents on her skin now. She could find the kitchens by their smell, tell men
from women by their scents. She knew Umma and the servants and the acolytes by the pattern of their
footfalls, could tell one from the other before they got close enough to smell (but not the waif or the
kindly man, who hardly made a sound at all unless they wanted to). The candles burning in the temple
had scents as well; even the unscented ones gave off faint wisps of smoke from their wicks. They had as
well been shouting, once she had learned to use her nose.
The dead men had their own smell too. One of her duties was to find them in the temple every
morning, wherever they had chosen to lie down and close their eyes after drinking from the pool.
This morning she found two.
One man had died at the feet of the Stranger, a single candle flickering above him. She could
feel its heat, and the scent that it gave off tickled her nose. The candle burned with a dark red flame, she
knew; for those with eyes, the corpse would have seemed awash in a ruddy glow. Before summoning
the serving men to carry him away, she knelt and felt his face, tracing the line of his jaw, brushing her
fingers across his cheeks and nose, touching his hair. Curly hair, and thick. A handsome face, unlined. He
was young. She wondered what had brought him here to seek the gift of death. Dying bravos oft found
their way to the House of Black and White, to hasten their ends, but this man had no wounds that she
could find.

The second body was that of an old woman. She had gone to sleep upon a dreaming couch, in
one of the hidden alcoves where special candles conjured visions of things loved and lost. A sweet death
and a gentle one, the kindly man was fond of saying. Her fingers told her that the old woman had died
with a smile on her face. She had not been dead long. Her body was still warm to the touch. Her skin is
so soft, like old thin leather thats been folded and wrinkled a thousand times.
When the serving men arrived to bear the corpse away, the blind girl followed them. She let
their footsteps be her guide, but when they made their descent she counted. She knew the counts of all
the steps by heart. Under the temple was a maze of vaults and tunnels where even men with two good
eyes were often lost, but the blind girl had learned every inch of it, and she had her stick to help her find
her way should her memory falter.
The corpses were laid out in the vault. The blind girl went to work in the dark, stripping the dead
of boots and clothes and other possessions, emptying their purses and counting out their coins. Telling
one coin from another by touch alone was one of the first things the waif had taught her, after they took
away her eyes. The Braavosi coins were old friends; she need only brush her fingertips across their faces
to recognize them. Coins from other lands and cities were harder, especially those from far away.
Volantene honors were most common, little coins no bigger than a penny with a crown on one side and
a skull on the other. Lysene coins were oval and showed a naked woman. Other coins had ships stamped
onto them, or elephants, or goats. The Westerosi coins showed a kings head on the front and a dragon
on the back.
The old woman had no purse, no wealth at all but for a ring on one thin finger. On the
handsome man she found four golden dragons out of Westeros. She was running the ball of her thumb
across the most worn of them, trying to decide which king it showed, when she heard the door opening
softly behind her.
Who is there? she asked. No one. The voice was deep, harsh, cold.
And moving. She stepped to one side, grabbed for her stick, snapped it up to protect her face.
Wood clacked against wood. The force of the blow almost knocked the stick from her hand. She held on,
slashed back  and found only empty air where he should have been. Not there, the voice said. Are
you blind?
She did not answer. Talking would only muddle any sounds he might be making. He would be
moving, she knew. Left or right? She jumped left, swung right, hit nothing. A stinging cut from behind
her caught her in the back of the legs. Are you deaf? She spun, the stick in her left hand, whirling,
missing. From the left she heard the sound of laughter. She slashed right.
This time she connected. Her stick smacked off his own. The impact sent a jolt up her arm.
Good, the voice said.
The blind girl did not know whom the voice belonged to. One of the acolytes, she supposed. She
did not remember ever hearing his voice before, but what was there to say that the servants of the

Many-Faced God could not change their voices as easily as they did their faces? Besides her, the House
of Black and White was home to two serving men, three acolytes, Umma the cook, and the two priests
that she called the waif and the kindly man. Others came and went, sometimes by secret ways, but
those were the only ones who lived here. Her nemesis could be any of them.
The girl darted sideways, her stick spinning, heard a sound behind her, whirled in that direction,
struck at air. And all at once his own stick was between her legs, tangling them as she tried to turn again,
scraping down her shin. She stumbled and went down to one knee, so hard she bit her tongue.
There she stopped. Still as stone. Where is he?
Behind her, he laughed. He rapped her smartly on one ear, then cracked her knuckles as she was
scrambling to her feet. Her stick fell clattering to the stone. She hissed in fury.
Go on. Pick it up. I am done beating you for today.
No one beat me. The girl crawled on all fours until she found her stick, then sprang back to her
feet, bruised and dirty. The vault was still and silent. He was gone. Or was he? He could be standing right
beside her, she would never know. Listen for his breathing, she told herself, but there was nothing. She
gave it another moment, then put her stick aside and resumed her work. If I had my eyes, I could beat
him bloody. One day the kindly man would give them back, and she would show them all.
The old womans corpse was cool by now, the bravos body stiffening. The girl was used to that.
Most days, she spent more time with the dead than with the living. She missed the friends shed had
when she was Cat of the Canals; Old Brusco with his bad back, his daughters Talea and Brea, the
mummers from the Ship, Merry and her whores at the Happy Port, all the other rogues and wharfside
scum. She missed Cat herself the most of all, even more than she missed her eyes. She had liked being
Cat, more than she had ever liked being Salty or Squab or Weasel or Arry. I killed Cat when I killed that
singer. The kindly man had told her that they would have taken her eyes from her anyway, to help her to
learn to use her other senses, but not for half a year. Blind acolytes were common in the House of Black
and White, but few as young as she. The girl was not sorry, though. Dareon had been a deserter from
the Nights Watch; he had deserved to die.
She had said as much to the kindly man. And are you a god, to decide who should live and who
should die? he asked her. We give the gift to those marked by Him of Many Faces, after prayers and
sacrifice. So has it always been, from the beginning. I have told you of the founding of our order, of how
the first of us answered the prayers of slaves who wished for death. The gift was given only to those
who yearned for it, in the beginning  but one day, the first of us heard a slave praying not for his own
death but for his masters. So fervently did he desire this that he offered all he had, that his prayer might
be answered. And it seemed to our first brother that this sacrifice would be pleasing to Him of Many
Faces, so that night he granted the prayer. Then he went to the slave and said, You offered all you had
for this mans death, but slaves have nothing but their lives. That is what the god desires of you. For the
rest of your days on earth, you will serve him. And from that moment, we were two. His hand closed
around her arm, gently but firmly. All men must die. We are but deaths instruments, not death

himself. When you slew the singer, you took gods powers on yourself. We kill men, but we do not
presume to judge them. Do you understand?
No, she thought. Yes, she said. You lie. And that is why you must now walk in darkness until
you see the way. Unless you wish to leave us. You need only ask, and you may have your eyes back.
No, she thought. No, she said.
That evening, after supper and a short session of the lying game, the blind girl tied a strip of rag
around her head to hide her useless eyes, found her begging bowl, and asked the waif to help her don
Beths face. The waif had shaved her head for her when they took her eyes; a mummers cut, she called
it, since many mummers did the same so their wigs might fit them better. But it worked for beggars too
and helped to keep their heads free from fleas and lice. More than a wig was needed, though. I could
cover you with weeping sores, the waif said, but then innkeeps and taverners would chase you from
their doors. Instead she gave her pox scars and a mummers mole on one cheek with a dark hair
growing from it. Is it ugly? the blind girl asked.
It is not pretty.
Good. She had never cared if she was pretty, even when she was stupid Arya Stark. Only her
father had ever called her that. Him, and Jon
Snow, sometimes. Her mother used to say she could be pretty if she would just wash and brush
her hair and take more care with her dress, the way her sister did. To her sister and sisters friends and
all the rest, she had just been Arya Horseface. But they were all dead now, even Arya, everyone but her
half-brother, Jon. Some nights she heard talk of him, in the taverns and brothels of the Ragmans
Harbor. The Black Bastard of the Wall, one man had called him. Even Jon would never know Blind Beth, I
bet. That made her sad.
The clothes she wore were rags, faded and fraying, but warm clean rags for all that. Under them
she hid three knivesone in a boot, one up a sleeve, one sheathed at the small of her back. Braavosi
were a kindly folk, by and large, more like to help the poor blind beggar girl than try to do her harm, but
there were always a few bad ones who might see her as someone they could safely rob or rape. The
blades were for them, though so far the blind girl had not been forced to use them. A cracked wooden
begging bowl and belt of hempen rope completed her garb.
She set out as the Titan roared the sunset, counting her way down the steps from the temple
door, then tapping to the bridge that took her over the canal to the Isle of the Gods. She could tell that
the fog was thick from the clammy way her clothes clung to her and the damp feeling of the air on her
bare hands. The mists of Braavos did queer things to sounds as well, she had found. Half the city will be
half-blind tonight.
As she made her way past the temples, she could hear the acolytes of the Cult of Starry Wisdom
atop their scrying tower, singing to the evening stars. A wisp of scented smoke hung in the air, drawing
her down the winding path to where the red priests had fired the great iron braziers outside the house

of the Lord of Light. Soon she could even feel the heat in the air, as red Rhllors worshipers lifted their
voices in prayer. For the night is dark and full of terrors, they prayed.
Not for me. Her nights were bathed in moonlight and filled with the songs of her pack, with the
taste of red meat torn off the bone, with the warm familiar smells of her grey cousins. Only during the
days was she alone and blind.
She was no stranger to the waterfront. Cat used to prowl the wharves and alleys of the
Ragmans Harbor selling mussels and oysters and clams for Brusco. With her rag and her shaved head
and her mummers mole, she did not look the same as she had then, but just to be safe she stayed away
from the Ship and the Happy Port and the other places where Cat had been best known.
She knew each inn and tavern by its scent. The Black Bargeman had a briny smell. Pyntos stank
of sour wine, stinky cheese, and Pynto himself, who never changed his clothes or washed his hair. At the
Sailmenders the smoky air was always spiced with the scent of roasting meat. The House of Seven
Lamps was fragrant with incense, the Satin Palace with the perfumes of pretty young girls who dreamed
of being courtesans.
Each place had its own sounds too. Moroggos and the Inn of the Green Eel had singers
performing most nights. At the Outcast Inn the patrons themselves did the singing, in drunken voices
and half a hundred tongues. The Foghouse was always crowded with polemen off the serpent boats,
arguing about gods and courtesans and whether or not the Sealord was a fool. The Satin Palace was
much quieter, a place of whispered endearments, the soft rustle of silk gowns, and the giggling of girls.
Beth did her begging at a different place every night. She had learned early on that innkeeps and
taverners were more apt to tolerate her presence if it was not a frequent occurrence. Last night she had
spent outside the Inn of the Green Eel, so tonight she turned right instead of left after the Bloody Bridge
and made her way to Pyntos at the other end of Ragmans Harbor, right on the edge of the Drowned
Town. Loud and smelly he might be, but Pynto had a soft heart under all his unwashed clothes and
bluster. Oft as not, he would let her come inside where it was warm if the place was not too crowded,
and now and again he might even let her have a mug of ale and a crust of food whilst regaling her with
his stories. In his younger days Pynto had been the most notorious pirate in the Step-stones, to hear him
tell it; he loved nothing better than to speak at great length about his exploits.
She was in luck tonight. The tavern was near empty, and she was able to claim a quiet corner
not far from the fire. No sooner had she settled there and crossed her legs than something brushed up
against her thigh. You again? said the blind girl. She scratched his head behind one ear, and the cat
jumped up into her lap and began to purr. Braavos was full of cats, and no place more than Pyntos. The
old pirate believed they brought good luck and kept his tavern free of vermin. You know me, dont
you? she whispered. Cats were not fooled by a mummers moles. They remembered Cat of the Canals.
It was a good night for the blind girl. Pynto was in a jolly mood and gave her a cup of watered
wine, a chunk of stinky cheese, and half of an eel pie. Pynto is a very good man, he announced, then
settled down to tell her of the time he seized the spice ship, a tale she had heard a dozen times before.

As the hours passed the tavern filled. Pynto was soon too busy to pay her any mind, but several
of his regulars dropped coins into her begging bowl. Other tables were occupied by strangers: Ibbenese
whalers who reeked of blood and blubber, a pair of bravos with scented oil in their hair, a fat man out of
Lorath who complained that Pyntos booths were too small for his belly. And later three Lyseni, sailors
off the Goodheart, a storm-wracked galley that had limped into Braavos last night and been seized this
morning by the Sealords guards.
The Lyseni took the table nearest to the fire and spoke quietly over cups of black tar rum,
keeping their voices low so no one could overhear. But she was no one and she heard most every word.
And for a time it seemed that she could see them too, through the slitted yellow eyes of the tomcat
purring in her lap. One was old and one was young and one had lost an ear, but all three had the
white-blond hair and smooth fair skin of Lys, where the blood of the old Freehold still ran strong.
The next morning, when the kindly man asked her what three things she knew that she had not
known before, she was ready.
I know why the Sealord seized the Goodheart. She was carrying slaves. Hundreds of slaves,
women and children, roped together in her hold. Braavos had been founded by escaped slaves, and the
slave trade was forbidden here.
I know where the slaves came from. They were wildlings from West-eros, from a place called
Hardhome. An old ruined place, accursed. Old Nan had told her tales of Hardhome, back at Winterfell
when she had still been Arya Stark. After the big battle where the King-Beyond-the-Wall was killed, the
wildlings ran away, and this woods witch said that if they went to Hardhome, ships would come and
carry them away to someplace warm. But no ships came, except these two Lyseni pirates, Goodheart
and Elephant, that had been driven north by a storm. They dropped anchor off Hardhome to make
repairs, and saw the wildlings, but there were thousands and they didnt have room for all of them, so
they said theyd just take the women and the children. The wildlings had nothing to eat, so the men sent
out their wives and daughters, but as soon as the ships were out to sea, the Lyseni drove them below
and roped them up. They meant to sell them all in Lys. Only then they ran into another storm and the
ships were parted. The Goodheart was so damaged her captain had no choice but to put in here, but the
Elephant may have made it back to Lys. The Lyseni at Pyntos think that shell return with more ships.
The price of slaves is rising, they said, and there are thousands more women and children at
Hardhome.
It is good to know. This is two. Is there a third?
Yes. I know that youre the one who has been hitting me. Her stick flashed out, and cracked
against his fingers, sending his own stick clattering to the floor.
The priest winced and snatched his hand back. And how could a blind girl know that?

I saw you. I gave you three. I dont need to give you four. Maybe on the morrow she would tell
him about the cat that had followed her home last night from Pyntos, the cat that was hiding in the
rafters, looking down on them. Or maybe not. If he could have secrets, so could she.
That evening Umma served salt-crusted crabs for supper. When her cup was presented to her,
the blind girl wrinkled her nose and drank it down in three long gulps. Then she gasped and dropped the
cup. Her tongue was on fire, and when she gulped a cup of wine the flames spread down her throat and
up her nose.
Wine will not help, and water will just fan the flames, the waif told her. Eat this. A heel of
bread was pressed into her hand. The girl stuffed it in her mouth, chewed, swallowed. It helped. A
second chunk helped more.
And come the morning, when the night wolf left her and she opened her eyes, she saw a tallow
candle burning where no candle had been the night before, its uncertain flame swaying back and forth
like a whore at the Happy Port. She had never seen anything so beautiful.
A GHOST IN WINTERFELL
The dead man was found at the base of the inner wall, with his neck broken and only his left leg
showing above the snow that had buried him during the night.
If Ramsays bitches had not dug him up, he might have stayed buried till spring. By the time Ben
Bones pulled them off, Grey Jeyne had eaten so much of the dead mans face that half the day was gone
before they knew for certain who hed been: a man-at-arms of four-and-forty years who had marched
north with Roger Ryswell. A drunk, Ryswell declared. Pissing off the wall, Ill wager. He slipped and
fell. No one disagreed. But Theon Greyjoy found himself wondering why any man would climb the
snow-slick steps to the battlements in the black of night just to take a piss.
As the garrison broke its fast that morning on stale bread fried in bacon grease (the lords and
knights ate the bacon), the talk along the benches was of little but the corpse.
Stannis has friends inside the castle, Theon heard one serjeant mutter. He was an old Tallhart
man, three trees sewn on his ragged surcoat. The watch had just changed. Men were coming in from the
cold, stomping their feet to knock the snow off their boots and breeches as the midday meal was
servedblood sausage, leeks, and brown bread still warm from the ovens.
Stannis? laughed one of Roose Ryswells riders. Stannis is snowed to death by now. Else hes
run back to the Wall with his tail froze between his legs.
He could be camped five feet from our walls with a hundred thousand men, said an archer
wearing Cerwyn colors. Wed never see a one o them through this storm.

Endless, ceaseless, merciless, the snow had fallen day and night. Drifts climbed the walls and
filled the crenels along the battlements, white blankets covered every roof, tents sagged beneath the
weight. Ropes were strung from hall to hall to help men keep from getting lost as they crossed the
yards. Sentries crowded into the guard turrets to warm half-frozen hands over glowing braziers, leaving
the wallwalks to the snowy sentinels the squires had thrown up, who grew larger and stranger every
night as wind and weather worked their will upon them. Ragged beards of ice grew down the spears
clasped in their snowy fists. No less a man than Hosteen Frey, who had been heard growling that he did
not fear a little snow, lost an ear to frostbite.
The horses in the yards suffered most. The blankets thrown over them to keep them warm
soaked through and froze if not changed regularly. When fires were lit to keep the cold at bay, they did
more harm then good. The warhorses feared the flames and fought to get away, injuring themselves
and other horses as they twisted at their lines. Only the horses in the stables were safe and warm, but
the stables were already overcrowded.
The gods have turned against us, old Lord Locke was heard to say in the Great Hall. This is
their wroth. A wind as cold as hell itself and snows that never end. We are cursed.
Stannis is cursed, a Dreadfort man insisted. He is the one out there in the storm.
Lord Stannis might be warmer than we know, one foolish freerider argued. His sorceress can
summon fire. Might be her red god can melt these snows.
That was unwise, Theon knew at once. The man spoke too loudly, and in the hearing of Yellow
Dick and Sour Alyn and Ben Bones. When the tale reached Lord Ramsay, he sent his Bastards Boys to
seize the man and drag him out into the snow. As you seem so fond of Stannis, we will send you to
him, he said. Damon Dance-for-Me gave the freerider a few lashes with his long greased whip. Then,
whilst Skinner and Yellow Dick made wagers on how fast his blood would freeze, Ramsay had the man
dragged up to the Battlements Gate.
Winterfells great main gates were closed and barred, and so choked with ice and snow that the
portcullis would need to be chipped free before it could be raised. Much the same was true of the
Hunters Gate, though there at least ice was not a problem, since the gate had seen recent use. The
Kingsroad Gate had not, and ice had frozen those drawbridge chains rock hard. Which left the
Battlements Gate, a small arched postern in the inner wall. Only half a gate, in truth, it had a drawbridge
that spanned the frozen moat but no corresponding gateway through the outer wall, offering access to
the outer ramparts but not the world beyond.
The bleeding freerider was carried across the bridge and up the steps, still protesting. Then
Skinner and Sour Alyn seized his arms and legs and tossed him from the wall to the ground eighty feet
below. The drifts had climbed so high that they swallowed the man bodily  but bowmen on the
battlements claimed they glimpsed him sometime later, dragging a broken leg through the snow. One
feathered his rump with an arrow as he wriggled away. He will be dead within the hour, Lord Ramsay
promised.

Or hell be sucking Lord Stanniss cock before the sun goes down, Whoresbane Umber threw
back.
He best take care it dont break off, laughed Rickard Ryswell. Any man out there in this, his
cock is frozen hard.
Lord Stannis is lost in the storm, said Lady Dustin. Hes leagues away, dead or dying. Let
winter do its worst. A few more days and the snows will bury him and his army both.
And us as well, thought Theon, marveling at her folly. Lady Barbrey was of the north and should
have known better. The old gods might be listening.
Supper was pease porridge and yesterdays bread, and that caused muttering amongst the
common men as well; above the salt, the lords and knights were seen to be eating ham.
Theon was bent over a wooden bowl finishing the last of his own portion of pease porridge
when a light touch on his shoulder made him drop his spoon. Never touch me, he said, twisting down
to snatch the fallen utensil off the floor before one of Ramsays girls could get hold of it. Never touch
me.
She sat down next to him, too close, another of Abels washerwomen. This one was young,
fifteen or maybe sixteen, with shaggy blond hair in need of a good wash and a pair of pouty lips in need
of a good kiss. Some girls like to touch, she said, with a little half-smile. If it please mlord, Im Holly.
Holly the whore, he thought, but she was pretty enough. Once he might have laughed and
pulled her into his lap, but that day was done. What do you want?
To see these crypts. Where are they, mlord? Would you show me? Holly toyed with a strand
of her hair, coiling it around her little finger. Deep and dark, they say. A good place for touching. All the
dead kings watching.
Did Abel send you to me?
Might be. Might be I sent myself. But if its Abel youre wanting, I could bring him. Hell sing
mlord a sweet song.
Every word she said persuaded Theon that this was all some ploy. But whose, and to what end?
What could Abel want of him? The man was just a singer, a pander with a lute and a false smile. He
wants to know how I took the castle, but not to make a song of it. The answer came to him. He wants to
know how we got in so he can get out. Lord Bolton had Winterfell sewn up tight as a babes swaddling
clothes. No one could come or go without his leave. He wants to flee, him and his washerwoman. Theon
could not blame him, but even so he said, I want no part of Abel, or you, or any of your sisters. Just
leave me be.
Outside the snow was swirling, dancing. Theon groped his way to the wall, then followed it to
the Battlements Gate. He might have taken the guards for a pair of Little Walders snowmen if he had

not seen the white plumes of their breath. I want to walk the walls, he told them, h is own breath
frosting in the air.
Bloody cold up there, one warned. Bloody cold down here, the other said, but you do as
you like, turn-cloak. He waved Theon through the gate.
The steps were snow-packed and slippery, treacherous in the dark. Once he reached the
wallwalk, it did not take him long to find the place where theyd thrown down the freerider. He knocked
aside the wall of fresh-fallen snow filling up the crenel and leaned out between the merlons. I could
jump, he thought. He lived, why shouldnt I? He could jump, and  And what? Break a leg and die
beneath the snow? Creep away to freeze to death?
It was madness. Ramsay would hunt him down, with the girls. Red Jeyne and Jez and Helicent
would tear him to pieces if the gods were good. Or worse, he might be taken back alive. I have to
remember my name, he whispered.
The next morning Ser Aenys Freys grizzled squire was found naked and dead of exposure in the
old castle lichyard, his face so obscured by hoarfrost that he appeared to be wearing a mask. Ser Aenys
put it forth that the man had drunk too much and gotten lost in the storm, though no one could explain
why he had taken off his clothes to go outside. Another drunkard, Theon thought. Wine could drown a
host of suspicions.
Then, before the day was done, a crossbowman sworn to the Flints turned up in the stables with
a broken skull. Kicked by a horse, Lord Ramsay declared. A club, more like, Theon decided.
It all seemed so familiar, like a mummer show that he had seen before. Only the mummers had
changed. Roose Bolton was playing the part that Theon had played the last time round, and the dead
men were playing the parts of Aggar, Gynir Rednose, and Gelmarr the Grim. Reek was there too, he
remembered, but he was a different Reek, a Reek with bloody hands and lies dripping from his lips,
sweet as honey. Reek, Reek, it rhymes with sneak.
The deaths set Roose Boltons lords to quarreling openly in the Great Hall. Some were running
short of patience. How long must we sit here waiting for this king who never comes? Ser Hosteen Frey
demanded. We should take the fight to Stannis and make an end to him.
Leave the castle? croaked one-armed Harwood Stout. His tone suggested he would sooner
have his remaining arm hacked off. Would you have us charge blindly into the snow?
To fight Lord Stannis we would first need to find him, Roose Ryswell pointed out. Our scouts
go out the Hunters Gate, but of late, none of them return.
Lord Wyman Manderly slapped his massive belly. White Harbor does not fear to ride with you,
Ser Hosteen. Lead us out, and my knights will ride behind you.

Ser Hosteen turned on the fat man. Close enough to drive a lance through my back, aye. Where
are my kin, Manderly? Tell me that. Your guests, who brought your son back to you.
His bones, you mean. Manderly speared a chunk of ham with his dagger. I recall them well.
Rhaegar of the round shoulders, with his glib tongue. Bold Ser Jared, so swift to draw his steel. Symond
the spymaster, always clinking coins. They brought home Wendels bones. It was Tywin Lannister who
returned Wylis to me, safe and whole, as he had promised. A man of his word, Lord Tywin, Seven save
his soul. Lord Wyman popped the meat into his mouth, chewed it noisily, smacked his lips, and said,
The road has many dangers, ser. I gave your brothers guest gifts when we took our leave of White
Harbor. We swore we would meet again at the wedding. Many and more bore witness to our parting.
Many and more? mocked Aenys Frey. Or you and yours?
What are you suggesting, Frey? The Lord of White Harbor wiped his mouth with his sleeve. I
do not like your tone, ser. No, not one bloody bit.
Step out into the yard, you sack of suet, and Ill serve you all the bloody bits that you can
stomach, Ser Hosteen said.
Wyman Manderly laughed, but half a dozen of his knights were on their feet at once. It fell to
Roger Ryswell and Barbrey Dustin to calm them with quiet words. Roose Bolton said nothing at all. But
Theon Greyjoy saw a look in his pale eyes that he had never seen beforean uneasiness, even a hint of
fear.
That night the new stable collapsed beneath the weight of the snow that had buried it.
Twenty-six horses and two grooms died, crushed beneath the falling roof or smothered under the
snows. It took the best part of the morning to dig out the bodies. Lord Bolton appeared briefly in the
outer ward to inspect the scene, then ordered the remaining horses brought inside, along with the
mounts still tethered in the outer ward. And no sooner had the men finished digging out the dead men
and butchering the horses than another corpse was found.
This one could not be waved away as some drunken tumble or the kick of a horse. The dead
man was one of Ramsays favorites, the squat, scrofulous, ill-favored man-at-arms called Yellow Dick.
Whether his dick had actually been yellow was hard to determine, as someone had sliced it off and
stuffed it into his mouth so forcefully they had broken three of his teeth. When the cooks found him
outside the kitchens, buried up to his neck in a snowdrift, both dick and man were blue from cold. Burn
the body, Roose Bolton ordered, and see that you do not speak of this. Ill not have this tale spread.
The tale spread nonetheless. By midday most of Winterfell had heard, many from the lips of
Ramsay Bolton, whose boy Yellow Dick had been. When we find the man who did this, Lord Ramsay
promised, I will flay the skin off him, cook it crisp as crackling, and make him eat it, every bite. Word
went out that the killers name would be worth a golden dragon.
The reek within the Great Hall was palpable by eventide. With hundreds of horses, dogs, and
men squeezed underneath one roof, the floors slimy with mud and melting snow, horseshit, dog turds,

and even human feces, the air redolent with the smells of wet dog, wet wool, and sodden horse
blankets, there was no comfort to be found amongst the crowded benches, but there was food. The
cooks served up great slabs of fresh horsemeat, charred outside and bloody red within, with roast
onions and neeps  and for once, the common soldiers ate as well as the lords and knights.
The horsemeat was too tough for the ruins of Theons teeth. His attempts to chew gave him
excruciating pain. So he mashed the neeps and onions up together with the flat of his dagger and made
a meal of that, then cut the horse up very small, sucked on each piece, and spat it out. That way at least
he had the taste, and some nourishment from the grease and blood. The bone was beyond him, though,
so he tossed it to the dogs and watched Grey Jeyne make off with it whilst Sara and Willow snapped at
her heels.
Lord Bolton commanded Abel to play for them as they ate. The bard sang Iron Lances, then
The Winter Maid. When Barbrey Dustin asked for something more cheerful, he gave them The Queen
Took Off Her Sandal, the King Took Off His Crown, and The Bear and the Maiden Fair. The Freys
joined the singing, and even a few northmen slammed their fists on the table to the chorus, bellowing,
A bear! A bear! But the noise frightened the horses, so the singers soon let off and the music died
away.
The Bastards Boys gathered beneath a wall sconce where a torch was flaming smokily. Luton
and Skinner were throwing dice. Grunt had a woman in his lap, a breast in his hand. Damon
Dance-for-Me sat greasing up his whip. Reek, he called. He tapped the whip against his calf as a man
might do to summon his dog. You are starting to stink again, Reek.
Theon had no reply for that beyond a soft Yes.
Lord Ramsay means to cut your lips off when all this is done, said Damon, stroking his whip
with a greasy rag.
My lips have been between his ladys legs. That insolence cannot go un-punished. As you say.
Luton guffawed. I think he wants it.
Go away, Reek, Skinner said. The smell of you turns my stomach. The others laughed.
He fled quickly, before they changed their minds. His tormentors would not follow him outside.
Not so long as there was food and drink within, willing women and warm fires. As he left the hall, Abel
was singing The Maids That Bloom in Spring.
Outside the snow was coming down so heavily that Theon could not see more than three feet
ahead of him. He found himself alone in a white wilderness, walls of snow looming up to either side of
him chest high. When he raised his head, the snowflakes brushed his cheeks like cold soft kisses. He
could hear the sound of music from the hall behind him. A soft song now, and sad. For a moment he felt
almost at peace.

Farther on, he came upon a man striding in the opposite direction, a hooded cloak flapping
behind him. When they found themselves face-to-face their eyes met briefly. The man put a hand on his
dagger. Theon Turncloak. Theon Kinslayer.
Im not. I never  I was ironborn.
False is all you were. How is it you still breathe?
The gods are not done with me, Theon answered, wondering if this could be the killer, the
night walker who had stuffed Yellow Dicks cock into his mouth and pushed Roger Ryswells groom off
the battlements. Oddly, he was not afraid. He pulled the glove from his left hand. Lord Ramsay is not
done with me.
The man looked, and laughed. I leave you to him, then.
Theon trudged through the storm until his arms and legs were caked with snow and his hands
and feet had gone numb from cold, then climbed to the battlements of the inner wall again. Up here, a
hundred feet high, a little wind was blowing, stirring the snow. All the crenels had filled up. Theon had
to punch through a wall of snow to make a hole  only to find that he could not see beyond the moat.
Of the outer wall, nothing remained but a vague shadow and a few dim lights floating in the dark.
The world is gone. Kings Landing, Riverrun, Pyke, and the Iron Islands, all the Seven Kingdoms,
every place that he had ever known, every place that he had ever read about or dreamed of, all gone.
Only Winterfell remained.
He was trapped here, with the ghosts. The old ghosts from the crypts and the younger ones that
he had made himself, Mikken and Farlen, Gynir Rednose, Aggar, Gelmarr the Grim, the millers wife
from Acorn Water and her two young sons, and all the rest. My work. My ghosts. They are all here, and
they are angry. He thought of the crypts and those missing swords.
Theon returned to his own chambers. He was stripping off his wet clothes when Steelshanks
Walton found him. Come with me, turncloak. His lordship wants words with you.
He had no clean dry clothes, so he wriggled back into the same damp rags and followed.
Steelshanks led him back to the Great Keep and the solar that had once been Eddard Starks. Lord
Bolton was not alone. Lady Dustin sat with him, pale-faced and severe; an iron horsehead brooch
clasped Roger Ryswells cloak; Aenys Frey stood near the fire, pinched cheeks flushed with cold.
I am told you have been wandering the castle, Lord Bolton began. Men have reported seeing
you in the stables, in the kitchens, in the barracks, on the battlements. You have been observed near the
ruins of collapsed keeps, outside Lady Catelyns old sept, coming and going from the godswood. Do you
deny it?

No, mlord. Theon made sure to muddy up the word. He knew that pleased Lord Bolton. I
cannot sleep, mlord. I walk. He kept his head down, fixed upon the old stale rushes scattered on the
floor. It was not wise to look his lordship in the face.
I was a boy here before the war. A ward of Eddard Stark.
You were a hostage, Bolton said. Yes, mlord. A hostage. It was my home, though. Not a true
home, but the best I ever knew.
Someone has been killing my men.
Yes, mlord.
Not you, I trust? Boltons voice grew even softer. You would not repay all my kindnesses with
such treachery.
No, mlord, not me. I wouldnt. I  only walk, is all.
Lady Dustin spoke up. Take off your gloves.
Theon glanced up sharply. Please, no. I  I 
Do as she says, Ser Aenys said. Show us your hands.
Theon peeled his gloves off and held his hands up for them to see. It is not as if I stand before
them naked. It is not so bad as that. His left hand had three fingers, his right four. Ramsay had taken
only the pinky off the one, the ring finger and forefingers from the other.
The Bastard did this to you, Lady Dustin said. If it please mlady, I  I asked it of him. Ramsay
always made him ask. Ramsay always makes me beg.
Why would you do that?
I  I did not need so many fingers.
Four is enough. Ser Aenys Frey fingered the wispy brown beard that sprouted from his weak
chin like a rats tail. Four on his right hand. He could still hold a sword. A dagger.
Lady Dustin laughed. Are all Freys such fools? Look at him. Hold a dagger? He hardly has the
strength to hold a spoon. Do you truly think he could have overcome the Bastards disgusting creature
and shoved his manhood down his throat?
These dead were all strong men, said Roger Ryswell, and none of them were stabbed. The
turncloaks not our killer.
Roose Boltons pale eyes were fixed on Theon, as sharp as Skinners flaying knife. I am inclined
to agree. Strength aside, he does not have it in him to betray my son.

Roger Ryswell grunted. If not him, who? Stannis has some man inside the castle, thats plain.
Reek is no man. Not Reek. Not me. He wondered if Lady Dustin had told them about the crypts,
the missing swords.
We must look at Manderly, muttered Ser Aenys Frey. Lord Wyman loves us not.
Ryswell was not convinced. He loves his steaks and chops and meat pies, though. Prowling the
castle by dark would require him to leave the table. The only time he does that is when he seeks the
privy for one of his hourlong squats.
I do not claim Lord Wyman does the deeds himself. He brought three hundred men with him. A
hundred knights. Any of them might have
Night work is not knights work, Lady Dustin said. And Lord Wyman is not the only man who
lost kin at your Red Wedding, Frey. Do you imagine Whoresbane loves you any better? If you did not
hold the Greatjon, he would pull out your entrails and make you eat them, as Lady Hornwood ate her
fingers. Flints, Cerwyns, Tallharts, Slates  they all had men with the Young Wolf.
House Ryswell too, said Roger Ryswell. Even Dustins out of Barrowton. Lady Dustin parted
her lips in a thin, feral smile. The north remembers, Frey.
Aenys Freys mouth quivered with outrage. Stark dishonored us. That is what you northmen
had best remember.
Roose Bolton rubbed at his chapped lips. This squabbling will not serve. He flicked his fingers
at Theon. You are free to go. Take care where you wander. Else it might be you we find upon the
morrow, smiling a red smile.
As you say, mlord. Theon drew his gloves on over his maimed hands and took his leave,
limping on his maimed foot.
The hour of the wolf found him still awake, wrapped in layers of heavy wool and greasy fur,
walking yet another circuit of the inner walls, hoping to exhaust himself enough to sleep. His legs were
caked with snow to the knee, his head and shoulders shrouded in white. On this stretch of the wall the
wind was in his face, and melting snow ran down his cheeks like icy tears.
Then he heard the horn.
A long low moan, it seemed to hang above the battlements, lingering in the black air, soaking
deep into the bones of every man who heard it. All along the castle walls, sentries turned toward the
sound, their hands tightening around the shafts of their spears. In the ruined halls and keeps of
Winterfell, lords hushed other lords, horses nickered, and sleepers stirred in their dark corners. No
sooner had the sound of the warhorn died away than a drum began to beat: BOOM doom BOOM doom
BOOM doom. And a name passed from the lips of each man to the next, written in small white puffs of
breath. Stannis, they whispered, Stannis is here, Stannis is come, Stannis, Stannis, Stannis.

Theon shivered. Baratheon or Bolton, it made no matter to him. Stannis had made common
cause with Jon Snow at the Wall, and Jon would take his head off in a heartbeat. Plucked from the
clutches of one bastard to die at the hands of another, what a jape. Theon would have laughed aloud if
hed remembered how.
The drumming seemed to be coming from the wolfswood beyond the Hunters Gate. They are
just outside the walls. Theon made his way along the wallwalk, one more man amongst a score doing
the same. But even when they reached the towers that flanked the gate itself, there was nothing to be
seen beyond the veil of white.
Do they mean to try and blow our walls down? japed a Flint when the warhorn sounded once
again. Mayhaps he thinks hes found the Horn of Joramun.
Is Stannis fool enough to storm the castle? a sentry asked. Hes not Robert, declared a
Barrowton man. Hell sit, see if he dont. Try and starve us out.
Hell freeze his balls off first, another sentry said. We should take the fight to him, declared
a Frey.
Do that, Theon thought. Ride out into the snow and die. Leave Winterfell to me and the ghosts.
Roose Bolton would welcome such a fight, he sensed. He needs an end to this. The castle was too
crowded to withstand a long siege, and too many of the lords here were of uncertain loyalty. Fat Wyman
Manderly, Whoresbane Umber, the men of House Hornwood and House Tallhart, the Lockes and Flints
and Ryswells, all of them were northmen, sworn to House Stark for generations beyond count. It was the
girl who held them here, Lord Eddards blood, but the girl was just a mummers ploy, a lamb in a
direwolfs skin. So why not send the north-men forth to battle Stannis before the farce unraveled?
Slaughter in the snow. And every man who falls is one less foe for the Dreadfort.
Theon wondered if he might be allowed to fight. Then at least he might die a mans death,
sword in hand. That was a gift Ramsay would never give him, but Lord Roose might. If I beg him. I did all
he asked of me, I played my part, I gave the girl away.
Death was the sweetest deliverance he could hope for.
In the godswood the snow was still dissolving as it touched the earth. Steam rose off the hot
pools, fragrant with the smell of moss and mud and decay. A warm fog hung in the air, turning the trees
into sentinels, tall soldiers shrouded in cloaks of gloom. During daylight hours, the steamy wood was
often full of northmen come to pray to the old gods, but at this hour Theon Greyjoy found he had it all
to himself.
And in the heart of the wood the weirwood waited with its knowing red eyes. Theon stopped by
the edge of the pool and bowed his head before its carved red face. Even here he could hear the
drumming, boom DOOM boom DOOM boom DOOM boom DOOM. Like distant thunder, the sound
seemed to come from everywhere at once.

The night was windless, the snow drifting straight down out of a cold black sky, yet the leaves of
the heart tree were rustling his name. Theon, they seemed to whisper, Theon.
The old gods, he thought. They know me. They know my name. I was Theon of House Greyjoy. I
was a ward of Eddard Stark, a friend and brother to his children. Please. He fell to his knees. A sword,
thats all I ask. Let me die as Theon, not as Reek. Tears trickled down his cheeks, impossibly warm. I
was ironborn. A son  a son of Pyke, of the islands.
A leaf drifted down from above, brushed his brow, and landed in the pool. It floated on the
water, red, five-fingered, like a bloody hand.  Bran, the tree murmured.
They know. The gods know. They saw what I did. And for one strange moment it seemed as if it
were Brans face carved into the pale trunk of the weirwood, staring down at him with eyes red and
wise and sad. Brans ghost, he thought, but that was madness. Why should Bran want to haunt him? He
had been fond of the boy, had never done him any harm. It was not Bran we killed. It was not Rickon.
They were only millers sons, from the mill by the Acorn Water. I had to have two heads, else they
would have mocked me  laughed at me  they 
A voice said, Who are you talking to?
Theon spun, terrified that Ramsay had found him, but it was just the washerwomenHolly,
Rowan, and one whose name he did not know. The ghosts, he blurted. They whisper to me. They 
they know my name.
Theon Turncloak. Rowan grabbed his ear, twisting. You had to have two heads, did you?
Elsewise men would have laughed at him, said Holly.
They do not understand. Theon wrenched free. What do you want? he asked.
You, said the third washerwoman, an older woman, deep-voiced, with grey streaks in her hair.
I told you. I want to touch you, turncloak. Holly smiled. In her hand a blade appeared.
I could scream, Theon thought. Someone will hear. The castle is full of armed men. He would be
dead before help reached him, to be sure, his blood soaking into the ground to feed the heart tree. And
what would be so wrong with that? Touch me, he said. Kill me. There was more despair than
defiance in his voice. Go on. Do me, the way you did the others. Yellow Dick and the rest. It was you.
Holly laughed. How could it be us? Were women. Teats and cunnies. Here to be fucked, not
feared.
Did the Bastard hurt you? Rowan asked. Chopped off your fingers, did he? Skinned your
widdle toes? Knocked your teeth out? Poor lad. She patted his cheek. There will be no more o that, I
promise. You prayed, and the gods sent us. You want to die as Theon? Well give you that. A nice quick
death, twill hardly hurt at all. She smiled. But not till youve sung for Abel. Hes waiting for you.

TYRION
Lot ninety-seven. The auctioneer snapped his whip. A pair of dwarfs, well trained for your
amusement.
The auction block had been thrown up where the broad brown Skahazadhan flowed into
Slavers Bay. Tyrion Lannister could smell the salt in the air, mingled with the stink from the latrine
ditches behind the slave pens. He did not mind the heat so much as he did the damp. The very air
seemed to weigh him down, like a warm wet blanket across his head and shoulders.
Dog and pig included in lot, the auctioneer announced. The dwarfs ride them. Delight the
guests at your next feast or use them for a folly.
The bidders sat on wooden benches sipping fruit drinks. A few were being fanned by slaves.
Many wore tokars, that peculiar garment beloved by the old blood of Slavers Bay, as elegant as it was
impractical. Others dressed more plainlymen in tunics and hooded cloaks, women in colored silks.
Whores or priestesses, most like; this far east it was hard to tell the two apart.
Back behind the benches, trading japes and making mock of the proceedings, stood a clot of
westerners. Sellswords, Tyrion knew. He spied longswords, dirks and daggers, a brace of throwing axes,
mail beneath their cloaks. Their hair and beards and faces marked most for men of the Free Cities, but
here and there were a few who might have been Westerosi. Are they buying? Or did they just turn up for
the show?
Who will open for this pair?
Three hundred, bid a matron on an antique palanquin. Four, called a monstrously fat
Yunkishman from the litter where he sprawled like a leviathan. Covered all in yellow silk fringed with
gold, he looked as large as four Illyrios. Tyrion pitied the slaves who had to carry him. At least we will be
spared that duty. What joy to be a dwarf.
And one, said a crone in a violet tokar. The auctioneer gave her a sour look but did not
disallow the bid.
The slave sailors off the Selaesori Qhoran, sold singly, had gone for prices ranging from five
hundred to nine hundred pieces of silver. Seasoned seamen were a valuable commodity. None had put
up any sort of fight when the slav ers boarded their crippled cog. For them this was just a change of
owner. The ships mates had been free men, but the widow of the waterfront had written them a
binder, promising to stand their ransom in such a case as this. The three surviving fiery fingers had not
been sold yet, but they were chattels of the Lord of Light and could count on being bought back by some
red temple. The flames tattooed upon their faces were their binders.
Tyrion and Penny had no such reassurance. Four-fifty, came the bid. Four-eighty.

Five hundred.
Some bids were called out in High Valyrian, some in the mongrel tongue of Ghis. A few buyers
signaled with a finger, the twist of a wrist, or the wave of a painted fan.
Im glad they are keeping us together, Penny whispered.
The slave trader shot them a look. No talk.
Tyrion gave Pennys shoulder a squeeze. Strands of hair, pale blond and black, clung to his brow,
the rags of his tunic to his back. Some of that was sweat, some dried blood. He had not been so foolish
as to fight the slavers, as Jorah Mormont had, but that did not mean he had escaped punishment. In his
case it was his mouth that earned him lashes.
Eight hundred.
And fifty.
And one.
Were worth as much as a sailor, Tyrion mused. Though perhaps it was Pretty Pig the buyers
wanted. A well-trained pig is hard to find. They certainly were not bidding by the pound.
At nine hundred pieces of silver, the bidding began to slow. At nine hundred fifty-one (from the
crone), it stopped. The auctioneer had the scent, though, and nothing would do but that the dwarfs give
the crowd a taste of their show. Crunch and Pretty Pig were led up onto the platform. Without saddles
or bridles, mounting them proved tricky. The moment the sow began to move Tyrion slid off her rump
and landed on his own, provoking gales of laughter from the bidders.
One thousand, bid the grotesque fat man.
And one. The crone again.
Pennys mouth was frozen in a rictus of a smile. Well trained for your amusement. Her father
had a deal to answer for, in whatever small hell was reserved for dwarfs.
Twelve hundred. The leviathan in yellow. A slave beside him handed him a drink. Lemon, no
doubt. The way those yellow eyes were fixed upon the block made Tyrion uncomfortable.
Thirteen hundred.
And one. The crone.
My father always said a Lannister was worth ten times as much as any common man.
At sixteen hundred the pace began to flag again, so the slave trader invited some of the buyers
to come up for a closer look at the dwarfs. The females young, he promised. You could breed the
two of them, get good coin for the whelps.

Half his nose is gone, complained the crone once shed had a good close look. Her wrinkled
face puckered with displeasure. Her flesh was maggot white; wrapped in the violet tokar, she looked like
a prune gone to mold. His eyes dont match neither. An ill-favored thing.
My lady hasnt seen my best part yet. Tyrion grabbed his crotch, in case she missed his
meaning.
The hag hissed in outrage, and Tyrion got a lick of the whip across his back, a stinging cut that
drove him to his knees. The taste of blood filled his mouth. He grinned and spat.
Two thousand, called a new voice, back of the benches.
And what would a sellsword want with a dwarf? Tyrion pushed himself back to his feet to get a
better look. The new bidder was an older man, white-haired yet tall and fit, with leathery brown skin
and a close-cropped salt-and-pepper beard. Half-hidden under a faded purple cloak were a longsword
and a brace of daggers.
Twenty-five hundred. A female voice this time; a girl, short, with a thick waist and heavy
bosom, clad in ornate armor. Her sculpted black steel breastplate was inlaid in gold and showed a harpy
rising with chains dangling from her claws. A pair of slave soldiers lifted her to shoulder height on a
shield.
Three thousand. The brown-skinned man pushed through the crowd, his fellow sellswords
shoving buyers aside to clear a path. Yes. Come closer. Tyrion knew how to deal with sellswords. He did
not think for a moment that this man wanted him to frolic at feasts. He knows me. He means to take me
back to Westeros and sell me to my sister. The dwarf rubbed his mouth to hide his smile. Cersei and the
Seven Kingdoms were half a world away. Much and more could happen before he got there. I turned
Bronn. Give me half a chance, might be I could turn this one too.
The crone and the girl on the shield gave up the chase at three thousand, but not the fat man in
yellow. He weighed the sellswords with his yellow eyes, flicked his tongue across his yellow teeth, and
said, Five thousand silvers for the lot.
The sellsword frowned, shrugged, turned away.
Seven hells. Tyrion was quite certain that he did not want to become the property of the
immense Lord Yellowbelly. Just the sight of him sagging across his litter, a mountain of sallow flesh with
piggy yellow eyes and breasts big as Pretty Pig pushing at the silk of his tokar was enough to make the
dwarfs skin crawl. And the smell wafting off him was palpable even on the block.
If there are no further bids
Seven thousand, shouted Tyrion.
Laughter rippled across the benches. The dwarf wants to buy himself, the girl on the shield
observed.

Tyrion gave her a lascivious grin. A clever slave deserves a clever master, and you lot all look
like fools.
That provoked more laughter from the bidders, and a scowl from the auctioneer, who was
fingering his whip indecisively as he tried to puzzle out whether this would work to his benefit.
Five thousand is an insult! Tyrion called out. I joust, I sing, I say amusing things. Ill fuck your
wife and make her scream. Or your enemys wife if you prefer, what better way to shame him? Im
murder with a cross-bow, and men three times my size quail and tremble when we meet across a
cyvasse table. I have even been known to cook from time to time. I bid ten thousand silvers for myself!
Im good for it, I am, I am. My father told me I must always pay my debts.
The sellsword in the purple cloak turned back. His eyes met Tyrions across the rows of other
bidders, and he smiled. A warm smile, that, the dwarf reflected. Friendly. But my, those eyes are cold.
Might be I dont want him to buy us after all.
The yellow enormity was squirming in his litter, a look of annoyance on his huge pie face. He
muttered something sour in Ghiscari that Tyrion did not understand, but the tone of it was plain
enough. Was that another bid? The dwarf cocked his head. I offer all the gold of Casterly Rock.
He heard the whip before he felt it, a whistle in the air, thin and sharp. Tyrion grunted under the
blow, but this time he managed to stay on his feet. His thoughts flashed back to the beginnings of his
journey, when his most pressing problem had been deciding which wine to drink with his midmorning
snails. See what comes of chasing dragons. A laugh burst from his lips, spattering the first row of buyers
with blood and spit.
You are sold, the auctioneer announced. Then he hit him again, just because he could. This
time Tyrion went down.
One of the guards yanked him back to his feet. Another prodded Penny down off the platform
with the butt of his spear. The next piece of chattel was already being led up to take their place. A girl,
fifteen or sixteen, not off the Selaesori Qhoran this time. Tyrion did not know her. The same age as
Daenerys Targaryen, or near enough. The slaver soon had her naked. At least we were spared that
humiliation.
Tyrion gazed across the Yunkish camp to the walls of Meereen. Those gates looked so close 
and if the talk in the slave pens could be believed, Meereen remained a free city for the nonce. Within
those crumbling walls, slavery and the slave trade were still forbidden. All he had to do was reach those
gates and pass beyond, and he would be a free man again.
But that was hardly possible unless he abandoned Penny. Shed want to take the dog and the pig
along.
It wont be so terrible, will it? Penny whispered. He paid so much for us. Hell be kind, wont
he?

So long as we amuse him. Were too valuable to mistreat, he reassured her, with blood still
trickling down his back from those last two lashes. When our show grows stale, however  and it does, it
does grow stale 
Their masters overseer was waiting to take charge of them, with a mule cart and two soldiers.
He had a long narrow face and a chin beard bound about with golden wire, and his stiff red-black hair
swept out from his temples to form a pair of taloned hands. What darling little creatures you are, he
said. You remind me of my own children  or would, if my little ones were not dead. I shall take good
care of you. Tell me your names.
Penny. Her voice was a whisper, small and scared.
Tyrion, of House Lannister, rightful lord of Casterly Rock, you sniveling worm. Yollo.
Bold Yollo. Bright Penny. You are the property of the noble and valorous Yezzan zo Qaggaz,
scholar and warrior, revered amongst the Wise Masters of Yunkai. Count yourselves fortunate, for
Yezzan is a kindly and benevolent master. Think of him as you would your father.
Gladly, thought Tyrion, but this time he held his tongue. They would have to perform for their
new master soon enough, he did not doubt, and he could not take another lash.
Your father loves his special treasures best of all, and he will cherish you, the overseer was
saying. And me, think of me as you would the nurse who cared for you when you were small. Nurse is
what all my children call me.
Lot ninety-nine, the auctioneer called. A warrior.
The girl had sold quickly and was being bundled off to her new owner, clutching her clothing to
small, pink-tipped breasts. Two slavers dragged Jorah Mormont onto the block to take her place. The
knight was naked but for a breechclout, his back raw from the whip, his face so swollen as to be almost
unrecognizable. Chains bound his wrists and ankles. A little taste of the meal he cooked for me, Tyrion
thought, yet he found that he could take no pleasure from the big knights miseries.
Even in chains, Mormont looked dangerous, a hulking brute with big, thick arms and sloped
shoulders. All that coarse dark hair on his chest made him look more beast than man. Both his eyes were
blackened, two dark pits in that grotesquely swollen face. Upon one cheek he bore a brand: a demons
mask.
When the slavers had swarmed aboard the Selaesori Qhoran, Ser Jorah had met them with
longsword in hand, slaying three before they overwhelmed him. Their shipmates would gladly have
killed him, but the captain forbade it; a fighter was always worth good silver. So Mormont had been
chained to an oar, beaten within an inch of his life, starved, and branded.
Big and strong, this one, the auctioneer declared. Plenty of piss in him. Hell give a good show
in the fighting pits. Who will start me out at three hundred?

No one would.
Mormont paid no mind to the mongrel crowd; his eyes were fixed beyond the siege lines, on the
distant city with its ancient walls of many-colored brick. Tyrion could read that look as easy as a book: so
near and yet so distant. The poor wretch had returned too late. Daenerys Targaryen was wed, the
guards on the pens had told them, laughing. She had taken a Meereenese slaver as her king, as wealthy
as he was noble, and when the peace was signed and sealed the fighting pits of Meereen would open
once again. Other slaves insisted that the guards were lying, that Daenerys Targaryen would never make
peace with slavers. Mhysa, they called her. Someone told him that meant Mother. Soon the silver queen
would come forth from her city, smash the Yunkaii, and break their chains, they whispered to one
another.
And then shell bake us all a lemon pie and kiss our widdle wounds and make them better, the
dwarf thought. He had no faith in royal rescues. If need be, he would see to their deliverance himself.
The mushrooms jammed into the toe of his boot should be sufficient for both him and Penny. Crunch
and Pretty Pig would need to fend for themselves.
Nurse was still lecturing his masters new prizes. Do all you are told and nothing more, and you
shall live like little lords, pampered and adored, he promised. Disobey  but you would never do that,
would you? Not my sweetlings. He reached down and pinched Penny on her cheek.
Two hundred, then, the auctioneer said. A big brute like this, hes worth three times as much.
What a bodyguard he will make! No enemy will dare molest you!
Come, my little friends, Nurse said, I will show you to your new home. In Yunkai you will
dwell in the golden pyramid of Qaggaz and dine off silver plates, but here we live simply, in the humble
tents of soldiers.
Who will give me one hundred? cried the auctioneer.
That drew a bid at last, though it was only fifty silvers. The bidder was a thin man in a leather
apron.
And one, said the crone in the violet tokar.
One of the soldiers lifted Penny onto the back of the mule cart. Who is the old woman? the
dwarf asked him.
Zahrina, the man said. Cheap fighters, hers. Meat for heroes. Your friend dead soon.
He was no friend to me. Yet Tyrion Lannister found himself turning to Nurse and saying, You
cannot let her have him.
Nurse squinted at him. What is this noise you make?

Tyrion pointed. That one is part of our show. The bear and the maiden fair. Jorah is the bear,
Penny is the maiden, I am the brave knight who rescues her. I dance about and hit him in the balls. Very
funny.
The overseer squinted at the auction block. Him? The bidding for Jorah Mormont had reached
two hundred silvers.
And one, said the crone in the violet tokar. Your bear. I see. Nurse went scuttling off through
the crowd, bent over the huge yellow Yunkishman in his litter, whispered in his ear. His master nodded,
chins wobbling, then raised his fan. Three hundred, he called out in a wheezy voice.
The crone sniffed and turned away. Why did you do that? Penny asked, in the Common
Tongue.
A fair question, thought Tyrion. Why did I? Your show was growing dull. Every mummer needs a
dancing bear.
She gave him a reproachful look, then retreated to the back of the cart and sat with her arms
around Crunch, as if the dog was her last true friend in the world. Perhaps he is.
Nurse returned with Jorah Mormont. Two of their masters slave soldiers flung him into the back
of the mule cart between the dwarfs. The knight did not struggle. All the fight went out of him when he
heard that his queen had wed, Tyrion realized. One whispered word had done what fists and whips and
clubs could not; it had broken him. I should have let the crone have him. Hes going to be as useful as
nipples on a breastplate.
Nurse climbed onto the front of the mule cart and took up the reins, and they set off through
the siege camp to the compound of their new master, the noble Yezzan zo Qaggaz. Four slave soldiers
marched beside them, two on either side of the cart.
Penny did not weep, but her eyes were red and miserable, and she never lifted them from
Crunch. Does she think all this might fade away if she does not look at it? Ser Jorah Mormont looked at
no one and nothing. He sat huddled, brooding in his chains.
Tyrion looked at everything and everyone.
The Yunkish encampment was not one camp but a hundred camps raised up cheek by jowl in a
crescent around the walls of Meereen, a city of silk and canvas with its own avenues and alleys, taverns
and trollops, good districts and bad. Between the siege lines and the bay, tents had sprouted up like
yellow mushrooms. Some were small and mean, no more than a flap of old stained canvas to keep off
the rain and sun, but beside them stood barracks tents large enough to sleep a hundred men and silken
pavilions as big as palaces with harpies gleaming atop their roof poles. Some camps were orderly, with
the tents arrayed around a fire pit in concentric circles, weapons and armor stacked around the inner
ring, horse lines outside. Elsewhere, pure chaos seemed to reign.

The dry, scorched plains around Meereen were flat and bare and treeless for long leagues, but
the Yunkish ships had brought lumber and hides up from the south, enough to raise six huge trebuchets.
They were arrayed on three sides of the city, all but the river side, surrounded by piles of broken stone
and casks of pitch and resin just waiting for a torch. One of the soldiers walking along beside the cart
saw where Tyrion was looking and proudly told him that each of the trebuchets had been given a name:
Dragonbreaker, Harridan, Harpys Daughter, Wicked Sister, Ghost of Astapor, Mazdhans Fist. Towering
above the tents to a height of forty feet, the trebuchets were the siege camps chief landmarks. Just the
sight of them drove the dragon queen to her knees, he boasted. And there she will stay, sucking
Hizdahrs noble cock, else we smash her walls to rubble.
Tyrion saw a slave being whipped, blow after blow, until his back was nothing but blood and raw
meat. A file of men marched past in irons, clanking with every step; they carried spears and wore short
swords, but chains linked them wrist to wrist and ankle to ankle. The air smelled of roasting meat, and
he saw one man skinning a dog for his stewpot.
He saw the dead as well, and heard the dying. Under the drifting smoke, the smell of horses, and
the sharp salt tang of the bay was a stink of blood and shit. Some flux, he realized, as he watched two
sellswords carry the corpse of a third from one of the tents. That made his fingers twitch. Disease could
wipe out an army quicker than any battle, he had heard his father say once.
All the more reason to escape, and soon.
A quarter mile on, he found good reason to reconsider. A crowd had formed around three slaves
taken whilst trying to escape. I know my little treasures will be sweet and obedient, Nurse said. See
what befalls ones who try to run.
The captives had been tied to a row of crossbeams, and a pair of sling-ers were using them to
test their skills. Tolosi, one of the guards told them. The best slingers in the world. They throw soft
lead balls in place of stones.
Tyrion had never seen the point of slings, when bows had so much better range  but he had
never seen Tolosi at work before. Their lead balls did vastly more damage then the smooth stones other
slingers used, and more than any bow as well. One struck the knee of one of the captives, and it burst
apart in a gout of blood and bone that left the mans lower leg dangling by a rope of dark red tendon.
Well, he wont run again, Tyrion allowed, as the man began to scream. His shrieks mingled in the
morning air with the laughter of camp followers and the curses of those whod wagered good coin that
the slinger would miss. Penny looked away, but Nurse grasped her under the chin and twisted her head
back around. Watch, he commanded. You too, bear.
Jorah Mormont raised his head and stared at Nurse. Tyrion could see the tightness in his arms.
Hes going to throttle him, and that will be the end for all of us. But the knight only grimaced, then
turned to watch the bloody show.

To the east the massive brick walls of Meereen shimmered through the morning heat. That was
the refuge these poor fools had hoped to reach. How long will it remain a refuge, though?
All three of the would-be escapees were dead before Nurse gathered up the reins again. The
mule cart rumbled on.
Their masters camp was south and east of the Harridan, almost in its shadow, and spread over
several acres. The humble tent of Yezzan zo Qaggaz proved to be a palace of lemon-colored silk. Gilded
harpies stood atop the center poles of each of its nine peaked roofs, shining in the sun. Lesser tents
ringed it on all sides. Those are the dwellings of our noble masters cooks, concubines, and warriors,
and a few less-favored kinsmen, Nurse told them, but you little darlings shall have the rare privilege of
sleeping within Yezzans own pavilion. It pleases him to keep his treasures close. He frowned at
Mormont. Not you, bear. You are big and ugly, you will be chained outside. The knight did not
respond. First, all of you must be fitted for collars.
The collars were made of iron, lightly gilded to make them glitter in the light. Yezzans name was
incised into the metal in Valyrian glyphs, and a pair of tiny bells were affixed below the ears, so the
wearers every step produced a merry little tinkling sound. Jorah Mormont accepted his collar in a sullen
silence, but Penny began to cry as the armorer was fastening her own into place. Its so heavy, she
complained.
Tyrion squeezed her hand. Its solid gold, he lied. In Westeros, high-born ladies dream of such
a necklace. Better a collar than a brand. A collar can be removed. He remembered Shae, and the way
the golden chain had glimmered as he twisted it tighter and tighter about her throat.
Afterward, Nurse had Ser Jorahs chains fastened to a stake near the cookfire whilst he escorted
the two dwarfs inside the masters pavilion and showed them where they would sleep, in a carpeted
alcove separated from the main tent by walls of yellow silk. They would share this space with Yezzans
other treasures: a boy with twisted, hairy goat legs, a two-headed girl out of Mantarys, a bearded
woman, and a willowy creature called Sweets who dressed in moonstones and Myrish lace. You are
trying to decide if Im a man or woman, Sweets said, when she was brought before the dwarfs. Then
she lifted her skirts and showed them what was underneath. Im both, and master loves me best.
A grotesquerie, Tyrion realized. Somewhere some god is laughing. Lovely, he said to Sweets,
who had purple hair and violet eyes, but we were hoping to be the pretty ones for once.
Sweets sniggered, but Nurse was not amused. Save your japes for this evening, when you
perform for our noble master. If you please him, you will be well rewarded. If not  He slapped Tyrion
across the face.
You will want to be careful with Nurse, said Sweets when the overseer had departed. He is
the only true monster here. The bearded woman spoke an incomprehensible variety of Ghiscari, the
goat boy some guttural sailors pidgin called the trade talk. The two-headed girl was feeble-minded; one
head was no bigger than an orange and did not speak at all, the other had filed teeth and was like to

growl at anyone who came too close to her cage. But Sweets was fluent in four tongues, one of them
High Valyrian.
What is the master like? Penny asked, anxiously. His eyes are yellow, and he stinks, said
Sweets. Ten years ago he went to Sothoros, and he has been rotting from the inside out ever since.
Make him forget that he is dying, even for a little while, and he can be most generous. Deny him
nothing.
They had only the afternoon to learn the ways of chattel. Yezzans body slaves filled a tub with
hot water, and the dwarfs were allowed to bathe Penny first, then Tyrion. Afterward another slave
spread a stinging ointment across the cuts on his back to keep them from mortifying, then covered them
with a cool poultice. Pennys hair was cut, and Tyrions beard got a trim. They were given soft slippers
and fresh clothing, plain but clean.
As evening fell, Nurse returned to tell them that it was time to don their mummers plate.
Yezzan would be hosting the Yunkish supreme commander, the noble Yurkhaz zo Yunzak, and they
would be expected to perform. Shall we unchain your bear?
Not this night, Tyrion said. Let us joust for our master first and save the bear for some other
time.
Just so. After your capers are concluded, you will help serve and pour. See that you do not spill
on the guests, or it will go ill for you.
A juggler began the evenings frolics. Then came a trio of energetic tumblers. After them the
goat-legged boy came out and did a grotesque jig whilst one of Yurkhazs slaves played on a bone flute.
Tyrion had half a mind to ask him if he knew The Rains of Castamere. As they waited their own turn to
perform, he watched Yezzan and his guests. The human prune in the place of honor was evidently the
Yunkish supreme commander, who looked about as formidable as a loose stool. A dozen other Yunkish
lords attended him. Two sellsword captains were on hand as well, each accompanied by a dozen men of
his company. One was an elegant Pentoshi, grey-haired and clad in silk but for his cloak, a ragged thing
sewn from dozens of strips of torn, bloodstained cloth. The other captain was the man whod tried to
buy them that morning, the brown-skinned bidder with the salt-and-pepper beard. Brown Ben Plumm,
Sweets named him. Captain of the Second Sons.
A Westerosi, and a Plumm. Better and better. You are next, Nurse informed them. Be
amusing, my little darlings, or you will wish you had.
Tyrion had not mastered half of Groats old tricks, but he could ride the sow, fall off when he
was meant to, roll, and pop back onto his feet. All of that proved well received. The sight of little people
running about drunk-enly and whacking at one another with wooden weapons appeared to be just as
hilarious in a siege camp by Slavers Bay as at Joffreys wedding feast in Kings Landing. Contempt,
thought Tyrion, the universal tongue.

Their master Yezzan laughed loudest and longest whenever one of his dwarfs suffered a fall or
took a blow, his whole vast body shaking like suet in an earthquake; his guests waited to see how
Yurkhaz no Yunzak responded before joining in. The supreme commander appeared so frail that Tyrion
was afraid laughing might kill him. When Pennys helm was struck off and flew into the lap of a
sour-faced Yunkishman in a striped green-and-gold tokar, Yurkhaz cackled like a chicken. When said lord
reached inside the helm and drew out a large purple melon dribbling pulp, he wheezed until his face
turned the same color as the fruit. He turned to his host and whispered something that made their
master chortle and lick his lips  though there was a hint of anger in those slitted yellow eyes, it seemed
to Tyrion.
Afterward the dwarfs stripped off their wooden armor and the sweat-soaked clothing beneath
and changed into the fresh yellow tunics that had been provided them for serving. Tyrion was given a
flagon of purple wine, Penny a flagon of water. They moved about the tent filling cups, their slippered
feet whispering over thick carpets. It was harder work than it appeared. Before long his legs were
cramping badly, and one of the cuts on his back had begun to bleed again, the red seeping through the
yellow linen of his tunic. Tyrion bit his tongue and kept on pouring.
Most of the guests paid them no more mind than they did the other slaves  but one
Yunkishman declared drunkenly that Yezzan should make the two dwarfs fuck, and another demanded
to know how Tyrion had lost his nose. I shoved it up your wifes cunt and she bit it off, he almost replied
 but the storm had persuaded him that he did not want to die as yet, so instead he said, It was cut off
to punish me for insolence, lord.
Then a lord in a blue tokar fringed with tigers eyes recalled that Tyrion had boasted of his skill
at cyvasse on the auction block. Let us put him to the test, he said. A table and set of pieces was duly
produced. A scant few moments later, the red-faced lord shoved the table over in fury, scattering the
pieces across the carpets to the sound of Yunkish laughter.
You should have let him win, Penny whispered.
Brown Ben Plumm lifted the fallen table, smiling. Try me next, dwarf. When I was younger, the
Second Sons took contract with Volantis. I learned the game there.
I am only a slave. My noble master decides when and who I play. Tyrion turned to Yezzan.
Master?
The yellow lord seemed amused by the notion. What stakes do you propose, Captain?
If I win, give this slave to me, said Plumm. No, Yezzan zo Qaggaz said. But if you can defeat
my dwarf, you may have the price I paid for him, in gold.
Done, the sellsword said. The scattered pieces were picked up off the carpet, and they sat
down to play.

Tyrion won the first game. Plumm took the second, for double the stakes. As they set up for
their third contest, the dwarf studied his opponent. Brown-skinned, his cheeks and jaw covered by a
close-cropped bristly beard of grey and white, his face creased by a thousand wrinkles and a few old
scars, Plumm had an amiable look to him, especially when he smiled. The faithful retainer, Tyrion
decided. Every mans favorite nuncle, full of chuckles and old sayings and roughspun wisdom. It was all
sham. Those smiles never touched Plumms eyes, where greed hid behind a veil of caution. Hungry, but
wary, this one.
The sellsword was nearly as bad a player as the Yunkish lord had been, but his play was stolid
and tenacious rather than bold. His opening arrays were different every time, yet all the
sameconservative, defensive, passive. He does not play to win, Tyrion realized. He plays so as not to
lose. It worked in their second game, when the little man overreached himself with an unsound assault.
It did not work in the third game, nor the fourth, nor the fifth, which proved to be their last.
Near the end of that final contest, with his fortress in ruins, his dragon dead, elephants before
him and heavy horse circling round his rear, Plumm looked up smiling and said, Yollo wins again. Death
in four.
Three. Tyrion tapped his dragon. I was lucky. Perhaps you should give my head a good rub
before our next game, Captain. Some of that luck might rub off on your fingers. You will still lose, but
you might give me a better game. Grinning, he pushed back from the cyvasse table, picked up his wine
flagon, and returned to pouring with Yezzan zo Qaggaz considerably richer and Brown Ben Plumm
considerably impoverished. His gargantuan master had fallen off into drunken sleep during the third
game, his goblet slipping from his yellowed fingers to spill its contents on the carpet, but perhaps he
would be pleased when he awakened.
When the supreme commander Yurkhaz zo Yunzak departed, supported by a pair of burly
slaves, that seemed to be a general signal for the other guests to take their leaves as well. After the tent
had emptied out, Nurse reappeared to tell the servers that they might make their own feast from the
leavings. Eat quickly. All this must be clean again before you sleep.
Tyrion was on his knees, his legs aching and his bloody back screaming with pain, trying to scrub
out the stain that the noble Yezzans spilled wine had left upon the noble Yezzans carpet, when the
overseer tapped his cheek gently with the end of his whip. Yollo. You have done well. You and your
wife.
She is not my wife.
Your whore, then. On your feet, both of you.
Tyrion rose unsteadily, one leg trembling beneath him. His thighs were knots, so cramped that
Penny had to lend him a hand to pull him to his feet. What have we done?
Much and more, said the overseer. Nurse said you would be rewarded if you pleased your
father, did he not? Though the noble Yezzan is loath to lose his little treasures, as you have seen,

Yurkhaz zo Yunzak persuaded him that it would be selfish to keep such droll antics to himself. Rejoice!
To celebrate the signing of the peace, you shall have the honor of jousting in the Great Pit of Daznak.
Thousands will come see you! Tens of thousands! And, oh, how we shall laugh!
JAIME
Raventree Hall was old. Moss grew thick between its ancient stones, spiderwebbing up its walls
like the veins in a crones legs. Two huge towers flanked the castles main gate, and smaller ones
defended every angle of its walls. All were square. Drum towers and half-moons held up better against
catapults, since thrown stones were more apt to deflect off a curved wall, but Raventree predated that
particular bit of builders wisdom.
The castle dominated the broad fertile valley that maps and men alike called Blackwood Vale. A
vale it was, beyond a doubt, but no wood had grown here for several thousand years, be it black or
brown or green. Once, yes, but axes had long since cleared the trees away. Homes and mills and
holdfasts had risen where once the oaks stood tall. The ground was bare and muddy, and dotted here
and there with drifts of melting snow.
Inside the castle walls, however, a bit of the forest still remained. House Blackwood kept the old
gods, and worshiped as the First Men had in the days before the Andals came to Westeros. Some of the
trees in their godswood were said to be as old as Raventrees square towers, especially the heart tree, a
weirwood of colossal size whose upper branches could be seen from leagues away, like bony fingers
scratching at the sky.
As Jaime Lannister and his escort wound through the rolling hills into the vale, little remained of
the fields and farms and orchards that had once surrounded Raventreeonly mud and ashes, and here
and there the blackened shells of homes and mills. Weeds and thorns and nettles grew in that
wasteland, but nothing that could be called a crop. Everywhere Jaime looked he saw his fathers hand,
even in the bones they sometimes glimpsed beside the road. Most were sheep bones, but there were
horses too, and cattle, and now and again a human skull, or a headless skeleton with weeds poking up
through its rib cage.
No great hosts encircled Raventree, as Riverrun had been encircled. This siege was a more
intimate affair, the latest step in a dance that went back many centuries. At best Jonos Bracken had five
hundred men about the castle. Jaime saw no siege towers, no battering rams, no catapults. Bracken did
not mean to break the gates of Raventree nor storm its high, thick walls. With no prospect of relief in
sight, he was content to starve his rival out. No doubt there had been sorties and skirmishes at the start
of the siege, and arrows flying back and forth; half a year into it, everyone was too tired for such
nonsense. Boredom and routine had taken over, the enemies of discipline.

Past time this was ended, thought Jaime Lannister. With Riverrun now safely in Lannister hands,
Raventree was the remnant of the Young Wolfs short-lived kingdom. Once it yielded, his work along the
Trident would be done, and he would be free to return to Kings Landing. To the king, he told himself,
but another part of him whispered, to Cersei.
He would have to face her, he supposed. Assuming the High Septon had not put her to death by
the time he got back to the city. Come at once, she had written, in the letter hed had Peck burn at
Riverrun. Help me. Save me. I need you now as I have never needed you before. I love you. I love you. I
love you. Come at once. Her need was real enough, Jaime did not doubt. As for the rest  shes been
fucking Lancel and Osmund Kettleblack and Moon Boy for all I know  Even if he had gone back, he
could not hope to save her. She was guilty of every treason laid against her, and he was short a sword
hand.
When the column came trotting from the fields, the sentries stared at them with more curiosity
than fear. No one sounded the alarm, which suited Jaime well enough. Lord Brackens pavilion did not
prove difficult to find. It was the largest in the camp, and the best sited; sitting atop a low rise beside a
stream, it commanded a clear view of two of Raventrees gates.
The tent was brown, like the standard flapping from its center pole, where the red stallion of
House Bracken reared upon its gold escutcheon. Jaime gave the order to dismount and told his men that
they might mingle if they liked. Not you two, he said to his banner-bearers. Stay close. This will not
keep me long. Jaime vaulted down off Honor and strode to Brackens tent, his sword rattling in its
scabbard.
The guards outside the tent flap exchanged an anxious look at his approach. My lord, said one.
Shall we announce you?
Ill announce myself. Jaime pushed aside the flap with his golden hand and ducked inside.
They were well and truly at it when he entered, so intent on their rutting that neither took any
note of his arrival. The woman had her eyes closed. Her hands clutched the coarse brown hair on
Brackens back. She gasped every time he drove into her. His lordships head was buried in her breasts,
his hands locked around her hips. Jaime cleared his throat. Lord Jonos.
The womans eyes flew open, and she gave a startled shriek. Jonos Bracken rolled off her,
grabbed for his scabbard, and came up with naked steel in hand, cursing. Seven bloody hells, he
started, who dares Then he saw Jaimes white cloak and golden breastplate. His swordpoint
dropped. Lannister?
I am sorry to disturb you at your pleasure, my lord, said Jaime, with a half-smile, but I am in
some haste. May we talk?
Talk. Aye. Lord Jonos sheathed his sword. He was not quite so tall as Jaime, but he was
heavier, with thick shoulders and arms that would have made a blacksmith envious. Brown stubble

covered his cheeks and chin. His eyes were brown as well, the anger in them poorly hidden. You took
me unawares, my lord. I was not told of your coming.
And I seem to have prevented yours. Jaime smiled at the woman in the bed. She had one hand
over her left breast and the other between her legs, which left her right breast exposed. Her nipples
were darker than Cerseis and thrice the size. When she felt Jaimes gaze she covered her right nipple,
but that revealed her mound. Are all camp followers so modest? he wondered. If a man wants to sell
his turnips, he needs to set them out.
You been looking at my turnips since you came in, ser. The woman found the blanket and
pulled it up high enough to cover herself to the waist, then raised one hand to push her hair back from
her eyes. And theyre not for sale, neither.
Jaime gave a shrug. My apologies if I mistook you for something youre not. My little brother
has known a hundred whores, Im sure, but Ive only ever bedded one.
Shes a prize of war. Bracken retrieved his breeches from the floor and shook them out. She
belonged to one of Blackwoods sworn swords till I split his head in two. Put your hands down, woman.
My lord of Lannister wants a proper look at those teats.
Jaime ignored that. You are putting those breeches on backwards, my lord, he told Bracken.
As Jonos cursed, the woman slipped off the bed to snatch up her scattered clothing, her fingers
fluttering nervously between her breasts and cleft as she bent and turned and reached. Her efforts to
conceal herself were oddly provocative, far more so than if shed simply gone about the business naked.
Do you have a name, woman? he asked her.
My mother named me Hildy, ser. She pulled a soiled shift down over her head and shook her
hair out. Her face was almost as dirty as her feet and she had enough hair between her legs to pass for
Brackens sister, but there was something appealing about her all the same. That pug nose, her shaggy
mane of hair  or the way she did a little curtsy after she had stepped into her skirt. Have you seen my
other shoe, mlord?
The question seemed to vex Lord Bracken. Am I a bloody handmaid, to fetch you shoes? Go
barefoot if you must. Just go.
Does that mean mlord wont be taking me home with him, to pray with his little wife?
Laughing, Hildy gave Jaime a brazen look. Do you have a little wife, ser?
No, I have a sister. What color is my cloak?
White, she said, but your hand is solid gold. I like that in a man. And what is it you like in a
woman, mlord?
Innocence.
In a woman, I said. Not a daughter.

He thought of Myrcella. I will need to tell her too. The Dornishmen might not like that. Doran
Martell had betrothed her to his son in the belief that she was Roberts blood. Knots and tangles, Jaime
thought, wishing he could cut through all of it with one swift stroke of his sword. I have sworn a vow,
he told Hildy wearily.
No turnips for you, then, the girl said, saucily. Get out, Lord Jonos roared at her.
She did. But as she slipped past Jaime, clutching one shoe and a pile of her clothes, she reached
down and gave his cock a squeeze through his breeches. Hildy, she reminded him, before she darted
half-clothed from the tent.
Hildy, Jaime mused. And how fares your lady wife? he asked Lord Jonos when the girl was
gone.
How would I know? Ask her septon. When your father burned our castle, she decided the gods
were punishing us. Now all she does is pray. Jonos had finally gotten his breeches turned the right way
round and was lacing them up the front. What brings you here, my lord? The Blackfish? We heard how
he escaped.
Did you? Jaime settled on a camp stool. From the man himself, perchance?
Ser Brynden knows better than to come running to me. I am fond of the man, I wont deny
that. That wont stop me clapping him in chains if he shows his face near me or mine. He knows Ive
bent the knee. He should have done the same, but he always was a stubborn one. His brother could
have told you that.
Tytos Blackwood has not bent the knee, Jaime pointed out. Might the Blackfish seek refuge
at Raventree?
He might seek it, but to find it hed need to get past my siege lines, and last I heard he hadnt
grown wings. Tytos will be needing refuge himself before much longer. Theyre down to rats and roots in
there. Hell yield before the next full moon.
Hell yield before the sun goes down. I mean to offer him terms and accept him back into the
kings peace.
I see. Lord Jonos shrugged into a brown woolen tunic with the red stallion of Bracken
embroidered on the front. Will my lord take a horn of ale?
No, but dont go dry on my account.
Bracken filled a horn for himself, drank half of it, and wiped his mouth. You spoke of terms.
What sort of terms?
The usual sort. Lord Blackwood shall be required to confess his treason and abjure his
allegiance to the Starks and Tullys. He will swear solemnly before gods and men to henceforth remain a

leal vassal of Harrenhal and the Iron Throne, and I will give him pardon in the kings name. We will take a
pot or two of gold, of course. The price of rebellion. Ill claim a hostage as well, to ensure that Raventree
does not rise again.
His daughter, suggested Bracken. Blackwood has six sons, but only the one daughter. He
dotes on her. A snot-nosed little creature, couldnt be more than seven.
Young, but she might serve.
Lord Jonos drained the last of his ale and tossed the horn aside. What of the lands and castles
we were promised?
What lands were these?
The east bank of the Widows Wash, from Crossbow Ridge to Rutting Meadow, and all the
islands in the stream. Grindcorn Mill and Lords Mill, the ruins of Muddy Hall, the Ravishment, Battle
Valley, Oldforge, the villages of Buckle, Blackbuckle, Cairns, and Claypool, and the market town at
Mudgrave. Waspwood, Lorgens Wood, Greenhill, and Barbas Teats. Missys Teats, the Blackwoods call
them, but they were Barbas first. Honeytree and all the hives. Here, Ive marked them out if my lord
would like a look. He rooted about on a table and produced a parchment map.
Jaime took it with his good hand, but he had to use the gold to open it and hold it flat. This is a
deal of land, he observed. You will be increasing your domains by a quarter.
Brackens mouth set stubbornly. All these lands belonged to Stone Hedge once. The
Blackwoods stole them from us.
What about this village here, between the Teats? Jaime tapped the map with a gilded knuckle.
Pennytree. That was ours once too, but its been a royal fief for a hundred years. Leave that
out. We ask only for the lands stolen by the Blackwoods. Your lord father promised to restore them to
us if we would subdue Lord Tytos for him.
Yet as I was riding up, I saw Tully banners flying from the castle walls, and the direwolf of Stark
as well. That would seem to suggest that Lord Tytos has not been subdued.
Weve driven him and his from the field and penned them up inside Raventree. Give me
sufficient men to storm his walls, my lord, and I will subdue the whole lot of them to their graves.
If I gave you sufficient men, they would be doing the subduing, not you. In which case I should
reward myself. Jaime let the map roll up again. Ill keep this if I might.
The map is yours. The lands are ours. Its said that a Lannister always pays his debts. We fought
for you.
Not half as long as you fought against us.

The king has pardoned us for that. I lost my nephew to your swords, and my natural son. Your
Mountain stole my harvest and burned everything he could not carry off. He put my castle to the torch
and raped one of my daughters. I will have recompense.
The Mountains dead, as is my father, Jaime told him, and some might say your head was
recompense enough. You did declare for Stark, and kept faith with him until Lord Walder killed him.
Murdered him, and a dozen good men of my own blood. Lord Jonos turned his head and spat.
Aye, I kept faith with the Young Wolf. As Ill keep faith with you, so long as you treat me fair. I bent the
knee because I saw no sense in dying for the dead nor shedding Bracken blood in a lost cause.
A prudent man. Though some might say that Lord Blackwood has been more honorable.
Youll get your lands. Some of them, at least. Since you partly subdued the Blackwoods.
That seemed to satisfy Lord Jonos. We will be content with whatever portion my lord thinks
fair. If I may offer you some counsel, though, it does not serve to be too gentle with these Blackwoods.
Treachery runs in their blood. Before the Andals came to Westeros, House Bracken ruled this river. We
were kings and the Blackwoods were our vassals, but they betrayed us and usurped the crown. Every
Blackwood is born a turncloak. You would do well to remember that when you are making terms.
Oh, I shall, Jaime promised.
When he rode from Brackens siege camp to the gates of Raventree, Peck went before him with
a peace banner. Before they reached the castle, twenty pairs of eyes were watching them from the
gatehouse ramparts. He drew Honor to a halt at the edge of the moat, a deep trench lined with stone,
its green waters choked by scum. Jaime was about to command Ser Kennos to sound the Horn of
Herrock when the drawbridge began to descend.
Lord Tytos Blackwood met him in the outer ward, mounted on a destrier as gaunt as himself.
Very tall and very thin, the Lord of Raventree had a hook nose, long hair, and a ragged salt-and-pepper
beard that showed more salt than pepper. In silver inlay on the breastplate of his burnished scarlet
armor was a white tree bare and dead, surrounded by a flock of onyx ravens taking flight. A cloak of
raven feathers fluttered from his shoulders.
Lord Tytos, Jaime said. Ser.
Thank you for allowing me to enter.
I will not say that you are welcome. Nor will I deny that I have hoped that you might come. You
are here for my sword.
I am here to make an end of this. Your men have fought valiantly, but your war is lost. Are you
prepared to yield?
To the king. Not to Jonos Bracken.

I understand.
Blackwood hesitated a moment. Is it your wish that I dismount and kneel before you here and
now?
A hundred eyes were looking on. The wind is cold and the yard is muddy, said Jaime. You can
do your kneeling on the carpet in your solar once weve agreed on terms.
That is chivalrous of you, said Lord Tytos. Come, ser. My hall might lack for food, but never
for courtesy.
Blackwoods solar was on the second floor of a cavernous timber keep. There was a fire burning
in the hearth when they entered. The room was large and airy, with great beams of dark oak supporting
the high ceiling. Woolen tapestries covered the walls, and a pair of wide latticework doors looked out
upon the godswood. Through their thick, diamond-shaped panes of yellow glass Jaime glimpsed the
gnarled limbs of the tree from which the castle took its name. It was a weirwood ancient and colossal,
ten times the size of the one in the Stone Garden at Casterly Rock. This tree was bare and dead, though.
The Brackens poisoned it, said his host. For a thousand years it has not shown a leaf. In
another thousand it will have turned to stone, the maesters say. Weirwoods never rot.
And the ravens? asked Jaime. Where are they?
They come at dusk and roost all night. Hundreds of them. They cover the tree like black leaves,
every limb and every branch. They have been coming for thousands of years. How or why, no man can
say, yet the tree draws them every night. Blackwood settled in a high-backed chair. For honors sake I
must ask about my liege lord.
Ser Edmure is on his way to Casterly Rock as my captive. His wife will remain at the Twins until
their child is born. Then she and the babe will join him. So long as he does not attempt escape or plot
rebellion, Edmure will live a long life.
Long and bitter. A life without honor. Until his dying day, men will say he was afraid to fight.
Unjustly, Jaime thought. It was his child he feared for. He knew whose son I am, better than mine
own aunt. The choice was his. His uncle would have made us bleed.
We agree on that much. Blackwoods voice gave nothing away. What have you done with Ser
Brynden, if I may ask?
I offered to let him take the black. Instead he fled. Jaime smiled. Do you have him here,
perchance?
No.
Would you tell me if you did?

It was Tytos Blackwoods turn to smile.
Jaime brought his hands together, the gold fingers inside the fleshy ones. Perhaps it is time we
talked of terms.
Is this where I get down on my knees?
If it please you. Or we can say you did.
Lord Blackwood remained seated. They soon reached agreement on the major points:
confession, fealty, pardon, a certain sum of gold and silver to be paid. What lands will you require?
Lord Tytos asked. When Jaime handed him the map, he took one look and chuckled. To be sure. The
turncloak must be given his reward.
Yes, but a smaller one than he imagines, for a smaller service. Which of these lands will you
consent to part with?
Lord Tytos considered for a moment. Woodhedge, Crossbow Ridge, and Buckle.
A ruin, a ridge, and a few hovels? Come, my lord. You must suffer for your treason. He will want
one of the mills, at least. Mills were a valuable source of tax. The lord received a tenth of all the grain
they ground.
Lords Mill, then. Grindcorn is ours.
And another village. Cairns?
I have forebears buried beneath the rocks of Cairns. He looked at the map again. Give him
Honeytree and its hives. All that sweet will make him fat and rot his teeth.
Done, then. But for one last thing.
A hostage.
Yes, my lord. You have a daughter, I believe.
Bethany. Lord Tytos looked stricken. I also have two brothers and a sister. A pair of widowed
aunts. Nieces, nephews, cousins. I had thought you might consent 
It must be a child of your blood.
Bethany is only eight. A gentle girl, full of laughter. She has never been more than a days ride
from my hall.
Why not let her see Kings Landing? His Grace is almost of an age with her. He would be
pleased to have another friend.

One he can hang if the friends father should displease him? asked Lord Tytos. I have four
sons. Would you consider one of them instead? Ben is twelve and thirsty for adventure. He could squire
for you if it please my lord.
I have more squires than I know what to do with. Every time I take a piss, they fight for the
right to hold my cock. And you have six sons, my lord, not four.
Once. Robert was my youngest and never strong. He died nine days ago, of a looseness of the
bowels. Lucas was murdered at the Red Wedding. Walder Freys fourth wife was a Blackwood, but
kinship counts for no more than guest right at the Twins. I should like to bury Lucas beneath the tree,
but the Freys have not yet seen fit to return his bones to me.
Ill see that they do. Was Lucas your eldest son?
My second. Brynden is my eldest, and my heir. Next comes Hoster. A bookish boy, I fear.
They have books in Kings Landing too. I recall my little brother reading them from time to
time. Perhaps your son would like a look at them. I will accept Hoster as our hostage.
Blackwoods relief was palpable. Thank you, my lord. He hesitated a moment. If I may be so
bold, you would do well to require a hostage from Lord Jonos too. One of his daughters. For all his
rutting, he has not proved man enough to father sons.
He had a bastard son killed in the war.
Did he? Harry was a bastard, true enough, but whether Jonos sired him is a thornier question.
A fair-haired boy, he was, and comely. Jonos is neither. Lord Tytos got to his feet. Will you do me the
honor of taking supper with me?
Some other time, my lord. The castle was starving; no good would be served by Jaime stealing
food from their mouths. I cannot linger. Riverrun awaits.
Riverrun? Or Kings Landing?
Both.
Lord Tytos did not attempt to dissuade him. Hoster can be ready to depart within the hour.
He was. The boy met Jaime by the stables, with a bedroll slung over one shoulder and a bundle
of scrolls beneath his arm. He could not have been any older than sixteen, yet he was even taller than
his father, almost seven feet of legs and shins and elbows, a gangling, gawky boy with a cowlick. Lord
Commander. Im your hostage, Hoster. Hos, they call me. He grinned.
Does he think this is a lark? Pray, who are they?
My friends. My brothers.

I am not your friend and I am not your brother. That cleaned the grin off the boys face. Jaime
turned to Lord Tytos. My lord, let there be no misunderstanding here. Lord Beric Dondarrion, Thoros of
Myr, Sandor Clegane, Brynden Tully, this woman Stoneheart  all these are outlaws and rebels, enemies
to the king and all his leal subjects. If I should learn that you or yours are hiding them, protecting them,
or assisting them in any way, I will not hesitate to send you your sons head. I hope you understand that.
Understand this as well: I am not Ryman Frey.
No. All trace of warmth had left Lord Blackwoods mouth. I know who I am dealing with.
Kingslayer.
Good. Jaime mounted and wheeled Honor toward the gate. I wish you a good harvest and
the joy of the kings peace.
He did not ride far. Lord Jonos Bracken was waiting for him outside Raventree, just beyond the
range of a good crossbow. He was mounted on an armored destrier and had donned his plate and mail,
and a grey steel greathelm with a horsehair crest. I saw them pull the direwolf banner down, he said
when Jaime reached him. Is it done?
Done and done. Go home and plant your fields.
Lord Bracken raised his visor. I trust I have more fields to plant than when you went into that
castle.
Buckle, Woodhedge, Honeytree and all its hives. He was forgetting one. Oh, and Crossbow
Ridge.
A mill, said Bracken. I must have a mill.
Lords Mill.
Lord Jonos snorted. Aye, that will serve. For now. He pointed at Hoster Blackwood, riding back
with Peck. Is this what he gave you for a hostage? You were cozened, ser. A weakling, this one. Water
for blood. Never mind how tall he is, any one of my girls could snap him like a rotten twig.
How many daughters do you have, my lord? Jaime asked him. Five. Two by my first wife and
three by my third. Too late, he seemed to realize that he might have said too much.
Send one of them to court. She will have the privilege of attending the Queen Regent.
Brackens face grew dark as he realized the import of those words. Is this how you repay the
friendship of Stone Hedge?
It is a great honor to wait upon the queen, Jaime reminded his lordship. You might want to
impress that on her. Well look for the girl before the year is out. He did not wait for Lord Bracken to
reply but touched Honor lightly with his golden spurs and trotted off. His men formed up and followed,
banners streaming. Castle and camp were soon lost behind them, obscured by the dust of their hooves.

Neither outlaws nor wolves had troubled them on their way to Raven-tree, so Jaime decided to
return by a different route. If the gods were good, he might stumble on the Blackfish, or lure Beric
Dondarrion into an unwise attack.
They were following the Widows Wash when they ran out of day. Jaime called his hostage
forward and asked him where to find the nearest ford, and the boy led them there. As the column
splashed across the shallow waters, the sun was setting behind a pair of grassy hills. The Teats, said
Hoster Blackwood.
Jaime recalled Lord Brackens map. Theres a village between those hills.
Pennytree, the lad confirmed. Well camp there for the night. If there were villagers about,
they might have knowledge of Ser Brynden or the outlaws. Lord Jonos made some remark about whose
teats they were, he recalled to the Blackwood boy as they rode toward the darkening hills and the last
light of the day. The Brackens call them by one name and the Blackwoods by another.
Aye, my lord. For a hundred years or so. Before that, they were the Mothers Teats, or just the
Teats. There are two of them, and it was thought that they resembled 
I can see what they resemble. Jaime found himself thinking back on the woman in the tent
and the way shed tried to hide her large, dark nipples. What changed a hundred years ago?
Aegon the Unworthy took Barba Bracken as his mistress, the bookish boy replied. She was a
very buxom wench, they say, and one day when the king was visiting at the Stone Hedge he went out
hunting and saw the Teats and 
 named them for his mistress. Aegon the Fourth had died long before Jaime had been born,
but he recalled enough of the history of his reign to guess what must have happened next. Only later
he put the Bracken girl aside and took up with a Blackwood, was that the way of it?
Lady Melissa, Hoster confirmed. Missy, they called her. Theres a statue of her in our
godswood. She was much more beautiful than Barba Bracken, but slender, and Barba was heard to say
that Missy was flat as a boy. When King Aegon heard, he 
 gave her Barbas teats. Jaime laughed. How did all this begin, between Blackwood and
Bracken? Is it written down?
It is, my lord, the boy said, but some of the histories were penned by their maesters and
some by ours, centuries after the events that they purport to chronicle. It goes back to the Age of
Heroes. The Blackwoods were kings in those days. The Brackens were petty lords, renowned for
breeding horses. Rather than pay their king his just due, they used the gold their horses brought them to
hire swords and cast him down.
When did all this happen?

Five hundred years before the Andals. A thousand, if the True History is to be believed. Only no
one knows when the Andals crossed the narrow sea. The True History says four thousand years have
passed since then, but some maesters claim that it was only two. Past a certain point, all the dates grow
hazy and confused, and the clarity of history becomes the fog of legend.
Tyrion would like this one. They could talk from dusk to dawn, arguing about books. For a
moment his bitterness toward his brother was forgotten, until he remembered what the Imp had done.
So you are fighting over a crown that one of you took from the other back when the Casterlys still held
Casterly Rock, is that the root of it? The crown of a kingdom that has not existed for thousands of
years? He chuckled. So many years, so many wars, so many kings  youd think someone would have
made a peace.
Someone did, my lord. Many someones. Weve had a hundred peaces with the Brackens, many
sealed with marriages. Theres Blackwood blood in every Bracken, and Bracken blood in every
Blackwood. The Old Kings Peace lasted half a century. But then some fresh quarrel broke out, and the
old wounds opened and began to bleed again. Thats how it always happens, my father says. So long as
men remember the wrongs done to their forebears, no peace will ever last. So we go on century after
century, with us hating the Brackens and them hating us. My father says there will never be an end to
it.
There could be.
How, my lord? The old wounds never heal, my father says.
My father had a saying too. Never wound a foe when you can kill him. Dead men dont claim
vengeance.
Their sons do, said Hoster, apologetically. Not if you kill the sons as well. Ask the Casterlys
about that if you doubt me. Ask Lord and Lady Tarbeck, or the Reynes of Castamere. Ask the Prince of
Dragonstone. For an instant, the deep red clouds that crowned the western hills reminded him of
Rhaegars children, all wrapped up in crimson cloaks.
Is that why you killed all the Starks?
Not all, said Jaime. Lord Eddards daughters live. One has just been wed. The other 
Brienne, where are you? Have you found her?  if the gods are good, shell forget she was a Stark. Shell
wed some burly blacksmith or fat-faced innkeep, fill his house with children, and never need to fear that
some knight might come along to smash their heads against a wall.
The gods are good, his hostage said, uncertainly.
You go on believing that. Jaime let Honor feel his spurs.
Pennytree proved to be a much larger village than he had anticipated. The war had been here
too; blackened orchards and the scorched shells of broken houses testified to that. But for every home

in ruins three more had been rebuilt. Through the gathering blue dusk Jaime glimpsed fresh thatch upon
a score of roofs, and doors made of raw green wood. Between a duck pond and a blacksmiths forge, he
came upon the tree that gave the place its name, an oak ancient and tall. Its gnarled roots twisted in and
out of the earth like a nest of slow brown serpents, and hundreds of old copper pennies had been nailed
to its huge trunk.
Peck stared at the tree, then at the empty houses. Where are the people?
Hiding, Jaime told him.
Inside the homes all the fires had been put out, but some still smoked, and none of them were
cold. The nanny goat that Hot Harry Merrell found rooting through a vegetable garden was the only
living creature to be seen  but the village had a holdfast as strong as any in the riverlands, with thick
stone walls twelve feet high, and Jaime knew that was where hed find the villagers. They hid behind
those walls when raiders came, thats why theres still a village here. And they are hiding there again,
from me.
He rode Honor up to the holdfast gates. You in the holdfast. We mean you no harm. Were
kings men.
Faces appeared on the wall above the gate. They was kings men burned our village, one man
called down. Before that, some other kings men took our sheep. They were for a different king, but
that didnt matter none to our sheep. Kings men killed Harsley and Ser Ormond, and raped Lacey till she
died.
Not my men, Jaime said. Will you open your gates?
When youre gone we will.
Ser Kennos rode close to him. We could break that gate down easy enough, or put it to the
torch.
While they drop stones on us and feather us with arrows. Jaime shook his head. It would be a
bloody business, and for what? These people have done us no harm. Well shelter in the houses, but Ill
have no stealing. We have our own provisions.
As a half-moon crept up the sky, they staked their horses out in the village commons and
supped on salted mutton, dried apples, and hard cheese. Jaime ate sparingly and shared a skin of wine
with Peck and Hos the hostage. He tried to count the pennies nailed to the old oak, but there were too
many of them and he kept losing count. Whats that all about? The Blackwood boy would tell him if he
asked, but that would spoil the mystery.
He posted sentries to see that no one left the confines of the village. He sent out scouts as well,
to make certain no enemy took them unawares. It was near midnight when two came riding back with a
woman they had taken captive. She rode up bold as you please, mlord, demanding words with you.

Jaime scrambled to his feet. My lady. I had not thought to see you again so soon. Gods be
good, she looks ten years older than when I saw her last. And whats happened to her face? That
bandage  youve been wounded 
A bite. She touched the hilt of her sword, the sword that he had given her. Oathkeeper. My
lord, you gave me a quest.
The girl. Have you found her?
I have, said Brienne, Maid of Tarth. Where is she?
A days ride. I can take you to her, ser  but you will need to come alone. Elsewise, the Hound
will kill her.
JON
Rhllor, sang Melisandre, her arms upraised against the falling snow, you are the light in our
eyes, the fire in our hearts, the heat in our loins. Yours is the sun that warms our days, yours the stars
that guard us in the dark of night.
All praise Rhllor, the Lord of Light, the wedding guests answered in ragged chorus before a
gust of ice-cold wind blew their words away. Jon Snow raised the hood of his cloak.
The snowfall was light today, a thin scattering of flakes dancing in the air, but the wind was
blowing from the east along the Wall, cold as the breath of the ice dragon in the tales Old Nan used to
tell. Even Melisandres fire was shivering; the flames huddled down in the ditch, crackling softly as the
red priestess sang. Only Ghost seemed not to feel the chill.
Alys Karstark leaned close to Jon. Snow during a wedding means a cold marriage. My lady
mother always said so.
He glanced at Queen Selyse. There must have been a blizzard the day she and Stannis wed.
Huddled beneath her ermine mantle and surrounded by her ladies, serving girls, and knights, the
southron queen seemed a frail, pale, shrunken thing. A strained smile was frozen into place on her thin
lips, but her eyes brimmed with reverence. She hates the cold but loves the flames. He had only to look
at her to see that. A word from Melisandre, and she would walk into the fire willingly, embrace it like a
lover.
Not all her queens men seemed to share her fervor. Ser Brus appeared half-drunk, Ser
Malegorns gloved hand was cupped round the arse of the lady beside him, Ser Narbert was yawning,
and Ser Patrek of Kings Mountain looked angry. Jon Snow had begun to understand why Stannis had
left them with his queen.

The night is dark and filled with terrors, Melisandre sang. Alone we are born and alone we
die, but as we walk through this black vale we draw strength from one another, and from you, our lord.
Her scarlet silks and satins swirled with every gust of wind. Two come forth today to join their lives, so
they may face this worlds darkness together. Fill their hearts with fire, my lord, so they may walk your
shining path hand in hand forever.
Lord of Light, protect us, cried Queen Selyse. Other voices echoed the response. Melisandres
faithful: pallid ladies, shivering serving girls, Ser Axell and Ser Narbert and Ser Lambert, men-at-arms in
iron mail and Thenns in bronze, even a few of Jons black brothers. Lord of Light, bless your children.
Melisandres back was to the Wall, on one side of the deep ditch where her fire burned. The
couple to be joined faced her across the ditch. Behind them stood the queen, with her daughter and her
tattooed fool. Princess Shireen was wrapped in so many furs that she looked round, breathing in white
puffs through the scarf that covered most of her face. Ser Axell Florent and his queens men surrounded
the royal party.
Though only a few men of the Nights Watch had gathered about the ditchfire, more looked
down from rooftops and windows and the steps of the great switchback stair. Jon took careful note of
who was there and who was not. Some men had the duty; many just off watch were fast asleep. But
others had chosen to absent themselves to show their disapproval. Othell Yarwyck and Bowen Marsh
were amongst the missing. Septon Chayle had emerged briefly from the sept, fingering the seven-sided
crystal on the thong about his neck, only to retreat inside again once the prayers began.
Melisandre raised her hands, and the ditchfire leapt upward toward her fingers, like a great red
dog springing for a treat. A swirl of sparks rose to meet the snowflakes coming down. Oh, Lord of Light,
we thank you, she sang to the hungry flames. We thank you for brave Stannis, by your grace our king.
Guide him and defend him, Rhllor. Protect him from the treacheries of evil men and grant him strength
to smite the servants of the dark.
Grant him strength, answered Queen Selyse and her knights and ladies. Grant him courage.
Grant him wisdom.
Alys Karstark slipped her arm through Jons. How much longer, Lord Snow? If Im to be buried
beneath this snow, Id like to die a woman wed.
Soon, my lady, Jon assured her. Soon.
We thank you for the sun that warms us, chanted the queen. We thank you for the stars that
watch over us in the black of night. We thank you for our hearths and for our torches that keep the
savage dark at bay. We thank you for our bright spirits, the fires in our loins and in our hearts.
And Melisandre said, Let them come forth, who would be joined. The flames cast her shadow
on the Wall behind her, and her ruby gleamed against the paleness of her throat.
Jon turned to Alys Karstark. My lady. Are you ready?

Yes. Oh, yes.
Youre not scared?
The girl smiled in a way that reminded Jon so much of his little sister that it almost broke his
heart. Let him be scared of me. The snowflakes were melting on her cheeks, but her hair was wrapped
in a swirl of lace that Satin had found somewhere, and the snow had begun to collect there, giving her a
frosty crown. Her cheeks were flushed and red, and her eyes sparkled.
Winters lady. Jon squeezed her hand.
The Magnar of Thenn stood waiting by the fire, clad as if for battle, in fur and leather and bronze
scales, a bronze sword at his hip. His receding hair made him look older than his years, but as he turned
to watch his bride approach, Jon could see the boy in him. His eyes were big as walnuts, though whether
it was the fire, the priestess, or the woman that had put the fear in him Jon could not say. Alys was more
right than she knew.
Who brings this woman to be wed? asked Melisandre. I do, said Jon. Now comes Alys of
House Karstark, a woman grown and flowered, of noble blood and birth. He gave her hand one last
squeeze and stepped back to join the others.
Who comes forth to claim this woman? asked Melisandre. Me. Sigorn slapped his chest.
Magnar of Thenn.
Sigorn, asked Melisandre, will you share your fire with Alys, and warm her when the night is
dark and full of terrors?
I swear me. The Magnars promise was a white cloud in the air. Snow dappled his shoulders.
His ears were red. By the red gods flames, I warm her all her days.
Alys, do you swear to share your fire with Sigorn, and warm him when the night is dark and full
of terrors?
Till his blood is boiling. Her maidens cloak was the black wool of the Nights Watch. The
Karstark sunburst sewn on its back was made of the same white fur that lined it.
Melisandres eyes shone as bright as the ruby at her throat. Then come to me and be as one.
As she beckoned, a wall of flames roared upward, licking at the snowflakes with hot orange tongues.
Alys Karstark took her Magnar by the hand.
Side by side they leapt the ditch. Two went into the flames. A gust of wind lifted the red
womans scarlet skirts till she pressed them down again. One emerges. Her coppery hair danced about
her head. What fire joins, none may put asunder.
What fire joins, none may put asunder, came the echo, from queens men and Thenns and
even a few of the black brothers.

Except for kings and uncles, thought Jon Snow.
Cregan Karstark had turned up a day behind his niece. With him came four mounted
men-at-arms, a huntsman, and a pack of dogs, sniffing after Lady Alys as if she were a deer. Jon Snow
met them on the kingsroad half a league south of Moles Town, before they could turn up at Castle
Black, claim guest right, or call for parley. One of Karstarks men had loosed a crossbow quarrel at Ty and
died for it. That left four, and Cregan himself.
Fortunately they had a dozen ice cells. Room for all.
Like so much else, heraldry ended at the Wall. The Thenns had no family arms as was customary
amongst the nobles of the Seven Kingdoms, so Jon told the stewards to improvise. He thought they had
done well. The brides cloak Sigorn fastened about Lady Alyss shoulders showed a bronze disk on a field
of white wool, surrounded by flames made with wisps of crimson silk. The echo of the Karstark sunburst
was there for those who cared to look, but differenced to make the arms appropriate for House Thenn.
The Magnar all but ripped the maidens cloak from Alyss shoulders, but when he fastened her
brides cloak about her he was almost tender. As he leaned down to kiss her cheek, their breath
mingled. The flames roared once again. The queens men began to sing a song of praise. Is it done?
Jon heard Satin whisper.
Done and done, muttered Mully, and a good thing. Theyre wed and Im half-froze. He was
muffled up in his best blacks, woolens so new that they had hardly had a chance to fade yet, but the
wind had turned his cheeks as red as his hair. Hobbs mulled some wine with cinnamon and cloves.
Thatll warm us some.
Whats cloves? asked Owen the Oaf.
The snow had started to descend more heavily and the fire in the ditch was guttering out. The
crowd began to break apart and stream from the yard, queens men, kings men, and free folk alike, all
anxious to get out of the wind and the cold. Will my lord be feasting with us? Mully asked Jon Snow.
Shortly. Sigorn might take it as a slight if he did not appear. And this marriage is mine own
work, after all. I have other matters to attend to first, however.
Jon crossed to Queen Selyse, with Ghost beside him. His boots crunched through piles of old
snow. It was growing ever more time-consuming to shovel out the paths from one building to another;
more and more, the men were resorting to the underground passages they called wormways.
 such a beautiful rite, the queen was saying. I could feel our lords fiery gaze upon us. Oh,
you cannot know how many times I have begged Stannis to let us be wed again, a true joining of body
and spirit blessed by the Lord of Light. I know that I could give His Grace more children if we were bound
in fire.

To give him more children you would first need to get him into your bed. Even at the Wall, it was
common knowledge that Stannis Baratheon had shunned his wife for years. One could only imagine how
His Grace had responded to the notion of a second wedding in the midst of his war.
Jon bowed. If it please Your Grace, the feast awaits.
The queen glanced at Ghost suspiciously, then raised her head to Jon. To be sure. Lady
Melisandre knows the way.
The red priestess spoke up. I must attend my fires, Your Grace. Perhaps Rhllor will vouchsafe
me a glimpse of His Grace. A glimpse of some great victory, mayhaps.
Oh. Queen Selyse looked stricken. To be sure  let us pray for a vision from our lord 
Satin, show Her Grace to her place, said Jon.
Ser Malegorn stepped forward. I will escort Her Grace to the feast. We shall not require your 
steward. The way the man drew out the last word told Jon that he had been considering saying
something else. Boy? Pet? Whore?
Jon bowed again. As you wish. I shall join you shortly.
Ser Malegorn offered his arm, and Queen Selyse took it stiffly. Her other hand settled on her
daughters shoulder. The royal ducklings fell in behind them as they made their way across the yard,
marching to the music of the bells on the fools hat. Under the sea the mermen feast on starfish soup,
and all the serving men are crabs, Patchface proclaimed as they went. I know, I know, oh, oh, oh.
Melisandres face darkened. That creature is dangerous. Many a time I have glimpsed him in
my flames. Sometimes there are skulls about him, and his lips are red with blood.
A wonder you havent had the poor man burned. All it would take was a word in the queens ear,
and Patchface would feed her fires. You see fools in your fire, but no hint of Stannis?
When I search for him all I see is snow.
The same useless answer. Clydas had dispatched a raven to Deepwood Motte to warn the king
of Arnolf Karstarks treachery, but whether the bird had reached His Grace in time Jon did not know. The
Braavosi banker was off in search of Stannis as well, accompanied by the guides that Jon had given him,
but between the war and weather, it would be a wonder if he found him. Would you know if the king
was dead? Jon asked the red priestess.
He is not dead. Stannis is the Lords chosen, destined to lead the fight against the dark. I have
seen it in the flames, read of it in ancient prophecy. When the red star bleeds and the darkness gathers,
Azor Ahai shall be born again amidst smoke and salt to wake dragons out of stone. Dragon-stone is the
place of smoke and salt.

Jon had heard all this before. Stannis Baratheon was the Lord of Drag-onstone, but he was not
born there. He was born at Storms End, like his brothers. He frowned. And what of Mance? Is he lost
as well? What do your fires show?
The same, I fear. Only snow.
Snow. It was snowing heavily to the south, Jon knew. Only two days ride from here, the
kingsroad was said to be impassable. Melisandre knows that too. And to the east, a savage storm was
raging on the Bay of Seals. At last report, the ragtag fleet they had assembled to rescue the free folk
from Hardhome still huddled at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea, confined to port by the rough seas. You are
seeing cinders dancing in the updraft.
I am seeing skulls. And you. I see your face every time I look into the flames. The danger that I
warned you of grows very close now.
Daggers in the dark. I know. You will forgive my doubts, my lady. A grey girl on a dying horse,
fleeing from a marriage, that was what you said.
I was not wrong.
You were not right. Alys is not Arya.
The vision was a true one. It was my reading that was false. I am as mortal as you, Jon Snow. All
mortals err.
Even lord commanders. Mance Rayder and his spearwives had not returned, and Jon could
not help but wonder whether the red woman had lied of a purpose. Is she playing her own game?
You would do well to keep your wolf beside you, my lord.
Ghost is seldom far. The direwolf raised his head at the sound of his name. Jon scratched him
behind the ears. But now you must excuse me. Ghost, with me.
Carved from the base of the Wall and closed with heavy wooden doors, the ice cells ranged from
small to smaller. Some were big enough to allow a man to pace, others so small that prisoners were
forced to sit; the smallest were too cramped to allow even that.
Jon had given his chief captive the largest cell, a pail to shit in, enough furs to keep him from
freezing, and a skin of wine. It took the guards some time to open his cell, as ice had formed inside the
lock. Rusted hinges screamed like damned souls when Wick Whittlestick yanked the door wide enough
for Jon to slip through. A faint fecal odor greeted him, though less overpowering than hed expected.
Even shit froze solid in such bitter cold. Jon Snow could see his own reflection dimly inside the icy walls.
In one corner of the cell a heap of furs was piled up almost to the height of a man. Karstark,
said Jon Snow. Wake up.

The furs stirred. Some had frozen together, and the frost that covered them glittered when they
moved. An arm emerged, then a facebrown hair, tangled and matted and streaked with grey, two
fierce eyes, a nose, a mouth, a beard. Ice caked the prisoners mustache, clumps of frozen snot. Snow.
His breath steamed in the air, fogging the ice behind his head. You have no right to hold me. The laws
of hospitality
You are no guest of mine. You came to the Wall without my leave, armed, to carry off your
niece against her will. Lady Alys was given bread and salt. She is a guest. You are a prisoner. Jon let that
hang for a moment, then said, Your niece is wed.
Cregan Karstarks lips skinned back from his teeth. Alys was promised to me. Though past fifty,
he had been a strong man when he went into the cell. The cold had robbed him of that strength and left
him stiff and weak. My lord father
Your father is a castellan, not a lord. And a castellan has no right to make marriage pacts.
My father, Arnolf, is Lord of Karhold.
A son comes before an uncle by all the laws I know.
Cregan pushed himself to his feet and kicked aside the furs clinging to his ankles. Harrion is
dead.
Or will be soon. A daughter comes before an uncle too. If her brother is dead, Karhold belongs
to Lady Alys. And she has given her hand in marriage to Sigorn, Magnar of Thenn.
A wildling. A filthy, murdering wildling. Cregans hands closed into fists. The gloves that
covered them were leather, lined with fur to match the cloak that hung matted and stiff from his broad
shoulders. His black wool surcoat was emblazoned with the white sunburst of his house. I see what you
are, Snow. Half a wolf and half a wildling, baseborn get of a traitor and a whore. You would deliver a
highborn maid to the bed of some stinking savage. Did you sample her yourself first? He laughed. If
you mean to kill me, do it and be damned for a kinslayer. Stark and Karstark are one blood.
My name is Snow. Bastard. Guilty. Of that, at least.
Let this Magnar come to Karhold. Well hack off his head and stuff it in a privy, so we can piss
into his mouth.
Sigorn leads two hundred Thenns, Jon pointed out, and Lady Alys believes Karhold will open
its gates to her. Two of your men have already sworn her their service and confirmed all she had to say
concerning the plans your father made with Ramsay Snow. You have close kin at Karhold, I am told. A
word from you could save their lives. Yield the castle. Lady Alys will pardon the women who betrayed
her and allow the men to take the black.
Cregan shook his head. Chunks of ice had formed about the tangles in his hair, and clicked
together softly when he moved. Never, he said. Never, never, never.

I should make his head a wedding gift for Lady Alys and her Magnar, Jon thought, but dare not
take the risk. The Nights Watch took no part in the quarrels of the realm; some would say he had
already given Stannis too much help. Behead this fool, and they will claim I am killing northmen to give
their lands to wildlings. Release him, and he will do his best to rip apart all Ive done with Lady Alys and
the Magnar. Jon wondered what his father would do, how his uncle might deal with this. But Eddard
Stark was dead, Benjen Stark lost in the frozen wilds beyond the Wall. You know nothing, Jon Snow.
Never is a long time, Jon said. You may feel differently on the morrow, or a year from now.
Soon or late King Stannis will return to the Wall, however. When he does he will have you put to death
 unless it happens that you are wearing a black cloak. When a man takes the black, his crimes are
wiped away. Even such a man as you. Now pray excuse me. I have a feast to attend.
After the biting cold of the ice cells, the crowded cellar was so hot that Jon felt suffocated from
the moment he came down the steps. The air smelled of smoke and roasting meat and mulled wine.
Axell Florent was making a toast as Jon took his place upon the dais. To King Stannis and his wife,
Queen Selyse, Light of the North! Ser Axell bellowed. To Rhllor, the Lord of Light, may he defend us
all! One land, one god, one king!
One land, one god, one king! the queens men echoed.
Jon drank with the rest. Whether Alys Karstark would find any joy in her marriage he could not
say, but this one night at least should be one of celebration.
The stewards began to bring out the first dish, an onion broth flavored with bits of goat and
carrot. Not precisely royal fare, but nourishing; it tasted good enough and warmed the belly. Owen the
Oaf took up his fiddle, and several of the free folk joined in with pipes and drums. The same pipes and
drums they played to sound Mance Rayders attack upon the Wall. Jon thought they sounded sweeter
now. With the broth came loaves of coarse brown bread, warm from the oven. Salt and butter sat upon
the tables. The sight made Jon gloomy. They were well provided with salt, Bowen Marsh had told him,
but the last of the butter would be gone within a moons turn.
Old Flint and The Norrey had been given places of high honor just below the dais. Both men had
been too old to march with Stannis; they had sent their sons and grandsons in their stead. But they had
been quick enough to descend on Castle Black for the wedding. Each had brought a wet nurse to the
Wall as well. The Norrey woman was forty, with the biggest breasts Jon Snow had ever seen. The Flint
girl was fourteen and flat-chested as a boy, though she did not lack for milk. Between the two of them,
the child Val called Monster seemed to be thriving.
For that much Jon was grateful  but he did not believe for a moment that two such hoary old
warriors would have hied down from their hills for that alone. Each had brought a tail of fighting
menfive for Old Flint, twelve for The Norrey, all clad in ragged skins and studded leathers, fearsome as
the face of winter. Some had long beards, some had scars, some had both; all worshiped the old gods of
the north, those same gods worshiped by the free folk beyond the Wall. Yet here they sat, drinking to a
marriage hallowed by some queer red god from beyond the seas.

Better that than refuse to drink. Neither Flint nor Norrey had turned their cups over to spill their
wine upon the floor. That might betoken a certain acceptance. Or perhaps they just hate to waste good
southron wine. They will not have tasted much of it up in those stony hills of theirs.
Between courses, Ser Axell Florent led Queen Selyse out onto the floor to dance. Others
followedthe queens knights first, partnered with her ladies. Ser Brus gave Princess Shireen her first
dance, then took a turn with her mother. Ser Narbert danced with each of Selyses lady companions in
turn.
The queens men outnumbered the queens ladies three to one, so even the humblest serving
girls were pressed into the dance. After a few songs some black brothers remembered skills learned at
the courts and castles of their youth, before their sins had sent them to the Wall, and took the floor as
well. That old rogue Ulmer of the Kingswood proved as adept at dancing as he was at archery, no doubt
regaling his partners with his tales of the Kingswood Brotherhood, when he rode with Simon Toyne and
Big Belly Ben and helped Wenda the White Fawn burn her mark in the buttocks of her highborn
captives. Satin was all grace, dancing with three serving girls in turn but never presuming to approach a
highborn lady. Jon judged that wise. He did not like the way some of the queens knights were looking at
the steward, particularly Ser Patrek of Kings Mountain. That one wants to shed a bit of blood, he
thought. He is looking for some provocation.
When Owen the Oaf began to dance with Patchface the fool, laughter echoed off the vaulted
ceiling. The sight made Lady Alys smile. Do you dance often, here at Castle Black?
Every time we have a wedding, my lady.
You could dance with me, you know. It would be only courteous. You danced with me anon.
Anon? teased Jon. When we were children. She tore off a bit of bread and threw it at him.
As you know well.
My lady should dance with her husband.
My Magnar is not one for dancing, I fear. If you will not dance with me, at least pour me some
of the mulled wine.
As you command. He signaled for a flagon. So, said Alys, as Jon poured, I am now a woman
wed. A wildling husband with his own little wildling army.
Free folk is what they call themselves. Most, at least. The Thenns are a people apart, though.
Very old. Ygritte had told him that. You know nothing, Jon Snow. They come from a hidden vale at the
north end of the Frostfangs, surrounded by high peaks, and for thousands of years theyve had more
truck with the giants than with other men. It made them different.
Different, she said, but more like us.

Aye, my lady. The Thenns have lords and laws. They know how to kneel. They mine tin and
copper for bronze, forge their own arms and armor instead of stealing it. A proud folk, and brave. Mance
Rayder had to best the old Magnar thrice before Styr would accept him as King-Beyond-the-Wall.
And now they are here, on our side of the Wall. Driven from their mountain fastness and into
my bedchamber. She smiled a wry smile. It is my own fault. My lord father told me I must charm your
brother Robb, but I was only six and didnt know how.
Aye, but now youre almost six-and-ten, and we must pray you will know how to charm your new
husband. My lady, how do things stand at Karhold with your food stores?
Not well. Alys sighed. My father took so many of our men south with him that only the
women and young boys were left to bring the harvest in. Them, and the men too old or crippled to go
off to war. Crops withered in the fields or were pounded into the mud by autumn rains. And now the
snows are come. This winter will be hard. Few of the old people will survive it, and many children will
perish as well.
It was a tale that any northmen knew well. My fathers grandmother was a Flint of the
mountains, on his mothers side, Jon told her. The First Flints, they call themselves. They say the other
Flints are the blood of younger sons, who had to leave the mountains to find food and land and wives. It
has always been a harsh life up there. When the snows fall and food grows scarce, their young must
travel to the winter town or take service at one castle or the other. The old men gather up what
strength remains in them and announce that they are going hunting. Some are found come spring. More
are never seen again.
It is much the same at Karhold.
That did not surprise him. When your stores begin to dwindle, my lady, remember us. Send
your old men to the Wall, let them say our words. Here at least they will not die alone in the snow, with
only memories to warm them. Send us boys as well, if you have boys to spare.
As you say. She touched his hand. Karhold remembers.
The elk was being carved. It smelled better than Jon had any reason to expect. He dispatched a
portion to Leathers out at Hardins Tower, along with three big platters of roast vegetables for Wun
Wun, then ate a healthy slice himself. Three-Finger Hobbs acquitted himself well. That had been a
concern. Hobb had come to him two nights ago complaining that hed joined the Nights Watch to kill
wildlings, not to cook for them. Besides, I never done no wedding feast, mlord. Black brothers dont
never take no wifes. Its in the bloody vows, I swear tis.
Jon was washing the roast down with a sip of mulled wine when Clydas appeared at his elbow.
A bird, he announced, and slipped a parchment into Jons hand. The note was sealed with a dot of
hard black wax. Eastwatch, Jon knew, even before he broke the seal. The letter had been written by
Maester Harmune; Cotter Pyke could neither read nor write. But the words were Pykes, set down as he
had spoken them, blunt and to the point.

Calm seas today. Eleven ships set sail for Hardhome on the morning tide. Three Braavosi, four
Lyseni, four of ours. Two of the Lyseni barely seaworthy. We may drown more wildlings than we save.
Your command. Twenty ravens aboard, and Maester Harmune. Will send reports. I command from Talon,
Tattersalt second on Blackbird, Ser Glendon holds Eastwatch.
Dark wings, dark words? asked Alys Karstark.
No, my lady. This news was long awaited. Though the last part troubles me. Glendon Hewett
was a seasoned man and a strong one, a sensible choice to command in Cotter Pykes absence. But he
was also as much a friend as Alliser Thorne could boast, and a crony of sorts with Janos Slynt, however
briefly. Jon could still recall how Hewett had dragged him from his bed, and the feel of his boot
slamming into his ribs. Not the man I would have chosen. He rolled the parchment up and slipped it into
his belt.
The fish course was next, but as the pike was being boned Lady Alys dragged the Magnar up
onto the floor. From the way he moved it was plain that Sigorn had never danced before, but he had
drunk enough mulled wine so that it did not seem to matter.
A northern maid and a wildling warrior, bound together by the Lord of Light. Ser Axell Florent
slipped into Lady Alyss vacant seat. Her Grace approves. I am close to her, my lord, so I know her mind.
King Stannis will approve as well.
Unless Roose Bolton has stuck his head on a spear. Not all agree, alas. Ser Axells beard was a
ragged brush beneath his sagging chin; coarse hair sprouted from his ears and nostrils. Ser Patrek feels
he would have made a better match for Lady Alys. His lands were lost to him when he came north.
There are many in this hall who have lost far more than that, said Jon, and more who have
given up their lives in service to the realm. Ser Patrek should count himself fortunate.
Axell Florent smiled. The king might say the same if he were here. Yet some provision must be
made for His Graces leal knights, surely? They have followed him so far and at such cost. And we must
needs bind these wildlings to king and realm. This marriage is a good first step, but I know that it would
please the queen to see the wildling princess wed as well.
Jon sighed. He was weary of explaining that Val was no true princess. No matter how often he
told them, they never seemed to hear. You are persistent, Ser Axell, I grant you that.
Do you blame me, my lord? Such a prize is not easily won. A nubile girl, I hear, and not hard to
look upon. Good hips, good breasts, well made for whelping children.
Who would father these children? Ser Patrek? You?
Who better? We Florents have the blood of the old Gardener kings in our veins. Lady
Melisandre could perform the rites, as she did for Lady Alys and the Magnar.
All you are lacking is a bride.

Easily remedied. Florents smile was so false that it looked painful. Where is she, Lord Snow?
Have you moved her to one of your other castles? Greyguard or the Shadow Tower? Whores Burrow,
with tother wenches? He leaned close. Some say you have her tucked away for your own pleasure. It
makes no matter to me, so long as she is not with child. Ill get my own sons on her. If youve broken her
to saddle, well  we are both men of the world, are we not?
Jon had heard enough. Ser Axell, if you are truly the Queens Hand, I pity Her Grace.
Florents face grew flushed with anger. So it is true. You mean to keep her for yourself, I see it
now. The bastard wants his fathers seat.
The bastard refused his fathers seat. If the bastard had wanted Val, all he had to do was ask for
her. You must excuse me, ser, he said. I need a breath of fresh air. It stinks in here. His head turned.
That was a horn.
Others had heard it too. The music and the laughter died at once. Dancers froze in place,
listening. Even Ghost pricked up his ears. Did you hear that? Queen Selyse asked her knights.
A warhorn, Your Grace, said Ser Narbert.
The queens hand went fluttering to her throat. Are we under attack?
No, Your Grace, said Ulmer of the Kingswood. Its the watchers on the Wall, is all.
One blast, thought Jon Snow. Rangers returning.
Then it came again. The sound seemed to fill the cellar. Two blasts, said Mully.
Black brothers, northmen, free folk, Thenns, queens men, all of them fell quiet, listening. Five
heartbeats passed. Ten. Twenty. Then Owen the Oaf tittered, and Jon Snow could breathe again. Two
blasts, he announced. Wildlings. Val.
Tormund Giantsbane had come at last.
DAENERYS
The hall rang to Yunkish laughter, Yunkish songs, Yunkish prayers. Dancers danced; musicians
played queer tunes with bells and squeaks and bladders; singers sang ancient love songs in the
incomprehensible tongue of Old Ghis. Wine flowednot the thin pale stuff of Slavers Bay but rich
sweet vintages from the Arbor and dreamwine from Qarth, flavored with strange spices. The Yunkaii
had come at King Hizdahrs invitation, to sign the peace and witness the rebirth of Meereens far-famed
fighting pits. Her noble husband had opened the Great Pyramid to fete them.

I hate this, thought Daenerys Targaryen. How did this happen, that I am drinking and smiling
with men Id sooner flay?
A dozen different sorts of meat and fish were served: camel, crocodile, singing squid, lacquered
ducks and spiny grubs, with goat and ham and horse for those whose tastes were less exotic. Plus dog.
No Ghiscari feast was complete without a course of dog. Hizdahrs cooks prepared dog four different
ways. Ghiscari will eat anything that swims or flies or crawls, but for man and dragon, Daario had
warned her, and Id wager theyd eat dragon too if given half a chance. Meat alone does not make a
meal, though, so there were fruits and grains and vegetables as well. The air was redolent with the
scents of saffron, cinnamon, cloves, pepper, and other costly spices.
Dany scarce touched a bite. This is peace, she told herself. This is what I wanted, what I worked
for, this is why I married Hizdahr. So why does it taste so much like defeat?
It is only for a little while more, my love, Hizdahr had assured her. The Yunkaii will soon be
gone, and their allies and hirelings with them. We shall have all we desired. Peace, food, trade. Our port
is open once again, and ships are being permitted to come and go.
They are permitting that, yes, she had replied, but their warships remain. They can close their
fingers around our throat again whenever they wish. They have opened a slave market within sight of
my walls!
Outside our walls, sweet queen. That was a condition of the peace, that Yunkai would be free
to trade in slaves as before, unmolested.
In their own city. Not where I have to see it. The Wise Masters had established their slave
pens and auction block just south of the Skahazadhan, where the wide brown river flowed into Slavers
Bay. They are mocking me to my face, making a show of how powerless I am to stop them.
Posing and posturing, said her noble husband. A show, as you have said. Let them have their
mummery. When they are gone, we will make a fruit market of what they leave behind.
When they are gone, Dany repeated. And when will they be gone? Riders have been seen
beyond the Skahazadhan. Dothraki scouts, Rakharo says, with a khalasar behind them. They will have
captives. Men, women, and children, gifts for the slavers. Dothraki did not buy or sell, but they gave
gifts and received them. That is why the Yunkaii have thrown up this market. They will leave here with
thousands of new slaves.
Hizdahr zo Loraq shrugged. But they will leave. That is the important part, my love. Yunkai will
trade in slaves, Meereen will not, this is what we have agreed. Endure this for a little while longer, and it
shall pass.
So Daenerys sat silent through the meal, wrapped in a vermilion tokar and black thoughts,
speaking only when spoken to, brooding on the men and women being bought and sold outside her

walls, even as they feasted here within the city. Let her noble husband make the speeches and laugh at
the feeble Yunkish japes. That was a kings right and a kings duty.
Much of the talk about the table was of the matches to be fought upon the morrow. Barsena
Blackhair was going to face a boar, his tusks against her dagger. Khrazz was fighting, as was the Spotted
Cat. And in the days final pairing, Goghor the Giant would go against Belaquo Bonebreaker. One would
be dead before the sun went down. No queen has clean hands, Dany told herself. She thought of
Doreah, of Quaro, of Eroeh  of a little girl she had never met, whose name had been Hazzea. Better a
few should die in the pit than thousands at the gates. This is the price of peace, I pay it willingly. If I look
back, I am lost.
The Yunkish Supreme Commander, Yurkhaz zo Yunzak, might have been alive during Aegons
Conquest, to judge by his appearance. Bent-backed, wrinkled, and toothless, he was carried to the table
by two strapping slaves. The other Yunkish lords were hardly more impressive. One was small and
stunted, though the slave soldiers who attended him were grotesquely tall and thin. The third was
young, fit, and dashing, but so drunk that Dany could scarce understand a word he said. How could I
have been brought to this pass by creatures such as these?
The sellswords were a different matter. Each of the four free companies serving Yunkai had sent
its commander. The Windblown were represented by the Pentoshi nobleman known as the Tattered
Prince, the Long Lances by Gylo Rhegan, who looked more shoemaker than soldier and spoke in
murmurs. Bloodbeard, from the Company of the Cat, made enough noise for him and a dozen more. A
huge man with a great bush of beard and a prodigious appetite for wine and women, he bellowed,
belched, farted like a thunderclap, and pinched every serving girl who came within his reach. From time
to time he would pull one down into his lap to squeeze her breasts and fondle her between the legs.
The Second Sons were represented too. If Daario were here, this meal would end in blood. No
promised peace could ever have persuaded her captain to permit Brown Ben Plumm to stroll back into
Meereen and leave alive. Dany had sworn that no harm would come to the seven envoys and
commanders, though that had not been enough for the Yunkaii. They had required hostages of her as
well. To balance the three Yunkish nobles and four sellsword captains, Meereen sent seven of its own
out to the siege camp: Hizdahrs sister, two of his cousins, Danys bloodrider Jhogo, her admiral Groleo,
the Unsullied captain Hero, and Daario Naharis.
I will leave my girls with you, her captain had said, handing her his sword belt and its gilded
wantons. Keep them safe for me, beloved. We would not want them making bloody mischief amongst
the Yunkaii.
The Shavepate was absent as well. The first thing Hizdahr had done upon being crowned was to
remove him from command of the Brazen Beasts, replacing him with his own cousin, the plump and
pasty Marghaz zo Loraq. It is for the best. The Green Grace says there is blood between Loraq and
Kandaq, and the Shavepate never made a secret of his disdain for my lord husband. And Daario 

Daario had only grown wilder since her wedding. Her peace did not please him, her marriage
pleased him less, and he had been furious at being deceived by the Dornishmen. When Prince Quentyn
told them that the other Westerosi had come over to the Stormcrows at the command of the Tattered
Prince, only the intercession of Grey Worm and his Unsullied prevented Daario from killing them all. The
false deserters had been imprisoned safely in the bowels of the pyramid  but Daarios rage continued
to fester.
He will be safer as a hostage. My captain was not made for peace. Dany could not risk his
cutting down Brown Ben Plumm, making mock of Hizdahr before the court, provoking the Yunkaii, or
otherwise upsetting the agreement that she had given up so much to win. Daario was war and woe.
Henceforth, she must keep him out of her bed, out of her heart, and out of her. If he did not betray her,
he would master her. She did not know which of those she feared the most.
When the gluttony was done and all the half-eaten food had been cleared away to be given to
the poor who gathered below, at the queens insistence tall glass flutes were filled with a spiced
liqueur from Qarth as dark as amber. Then began the entertainments.
A troupe of Yunkish castrati owned by Yurkhaz zo Yunzak sang them songs in the ancient tongue
of the Old Empire, their voices high and sweet and impossibly pure. Have you ever heard such singing,
my love? Hizdahr asked her. They have the voices of gods, do they not?
Yes, she said, though I wonder if they might not have preferred to have the fruits of men.
All of the entertainers were slaves. That had been part of the peace, that slaveowners be
allowed the right to bring their chattels into Meereen without fear of having them freed. In return the
Yunkaii had promised to respect the rights and liberties of the former slaves that Dany had freed. A fair
bargain, Hizdahr said, but the taste it left in the queens mouth was foul. She drank another cup of wine
to wash it out.
If it please you, Yurkhaz will be pleased to give us the singers, I do not doubt, her noble
husband said. A gift to seal our peace, an ornament to our court.
He will give us these castrati, Dany thought, and then he will march home and make some more.
The world is full of boys.
The tumblers who came next failed to move her either, even when they formed a human
pyramid nine levels high, with a naked little girl on top. Is that meant to represent my pyramid? the
queen wondered. Is the girl on top meant to be me?
Afterward her lord husband led his guests onto the lower terrace, so the visitors from the Yellow
City might behold Meereen by night. Wine cups in hand, the Yunkaii wandered the garden in small
groups, beneath lemon trees and night-blooming flowers, and Dany found herself face-to-face with
Brown Ben Plumm.

He bowed low. Worship. You look lovely. Well, you always did. None of them Yunkishmen are
half so pretty. I thought I might bring a wedding gift for you, but the bidding went too high for old Brown
Ben.
I want no gifts from you.
This one you might. The head of an old foe.
Your own? she said sweetly. You betrayed me.
Now thats a harsh way o putting it, if you dont mind me saying. Brown Ben scratched at his
speckled grey-and-white whiskers. We went over to the winning side, is all. Same as we done before. It
werent all me, neither. I put it to my men.
So they betrayed me, is that what you are saying? Why? Did I mistreat the Second Sons? Did I
cheat you on your pay?
Never that, said Brown Ben, but its not all about the coin, Your High-and-Mightiness. I
learned that a long time back, at my first battle. Morning after the fight, I was rooting through the dead,
looking for the odd bit o plunder, as it were. Came upon this one corpse, some axeman had taken his
whole arm off at the shoulder. He was covered with flies, all crusty with dried blood, might be why no
one else had touched him, but under them he wore this studded jerkin, looked to be good leather. I
figured it might fit me well enough, so I chased away the flies and cut it off him. The damn thing was
heavier than it had any right to be, though. Under the lining, hed sewn a fortune in coin. Gold, Your
Worship, sweet yellow gold. Enough for any man to live like a lord for the rest o his days. But what good
did it do him? There he was with all his coin, lying in the blood and mud with his fucking arm cut off. And
thats the lesson, see? Silvers sweet and golds our mother, but once youre dead theyre worth less
than that last shit you take as you lie dying. I told you once, there are old sellswords and there are bold
sellswords, but there are no old bold sellswords. My boys didnt care to die, thats all, and when I told
them that you couldnt unleash them dragons against the Yunkishmen, well 
You saw me as defeated, Dany thought, and who am I to say that you were wrong? I
understand. She might have ended it there, but she was curious. Enough gold to live like a lord, you
said. What did you do with all that wealth?
Brown Ben laughed. Fool boy that I was, I told a man I took to be my friend, and he told our
serjeant, and my brothers-in-arms come and relieved me o that burden. Serjeant said I was too young,
that Id only waste it all on whores and such. He let me keep the jerkin, though. He spat. You dont
never want to trust a sellsword, mlady.
I have learned that much. One day I must be sure to thank you for the lesson.
Brown Bens eyes crinkled up. No need. I know the sort o thanks you have in mind. He bowed
again and moved away.

Dany turned to gaze out over her city. Beyond her walls the yellow tents of the Yunkaii stood in
orderly rows beside the sea, protected by the ditches their slaves had dug for them. Two iron legions out
of New Ghis, trained and armed in the same fashion as Unsullied, were encamped across the river to the
north. Two more Ghiscari legions had made camp to the east, choking off the road to the Khyzai Pass.
The horse lines and cookfires of the free companies lay to the south. By day thin plumes of smoke hung
against the sky like ragged grey ribbons. By night distant fires could be seen. Hard by the bay was the
abomination, the slave market at her door. She could not see it now, with the sun set, but she knew that
it was there. That just made her angrier.
Ser Barristan? she said softly.
The white knight appeared at once. Your Grace.
How much did you hear?
Enough. He was not wrong. Never trust a sellsword.
Or a queen, thought Dany. Is there some man in the Second Sons who might be persuaded to 
remove  Brown Ben?
As Daario Naharis once removed the other captains of the Stormcrows? The old knight looked
uncomfortable. Perhaps. I would not know, Your Grace.
No, she thought, you are too honest and too honorable. If not, the Yunkaii employ three other
companies.
Rogues and cutthroats, scum of a hundred battlefields, Ser Barristan warned, with captains
full as treacherous as Plumm.
I am only a young girl and know little of such things, but it seems to me that we want them to
be treacherous. Once, youll recall, I convinced the Second Sons and Stormcrows to join us.
If Your Grace wishes a privy word with Gylo Rhegan or the Tattered Prince, I could bring them
up to your apartments.
This is not the time. Too many eyes, too many ears. Their absence would be noted even if you
could separate them discreetly from the Yunkaii. We must find some quieter way of reaching out to
them  not tonight, but soon.
As you command. Though I fear this is not a task for which I am well suited. In Kings Landing
work of this sort was left to Lord Littlefinger or the Spider. We old knights are simple men, only good for
fighting. He patted his sword hilt.
Our prisoners, suggested Dany. The Westerosi who came over from the Windblown with the
three Dornishmen. We still have them in cells, do we not? Use them.

Free them, you mean? Is that wise? They were sent here to worm their way into your trust, so
they might betray Your Grace at the first chance.
Then they failed. I do not trust them. I will never trust them. If truth be told, Dany was
forgetting how to trust. We can still use them. One was a woman. Meris. Send her back, as a  a
gesture of my regard. If their captain is a clever man, he will understand.
The woman is the worst of all.
All the better. Dany considered a moment. We should sound out the Long Lances too. And
the Company of the Cat.
Bloodbeard. Ser Barristans frown deepened. If it please Your Grace, we want no part of him.
Your Grace is too young to remember the Ninepenny Kings, but this Bloodbeard is cut from the same
savage cloth. There is no honor in him, only hunger  for gold, for glory, for blood.
You know more of such men than me, ser. If Bloodbeard might be truly the most dishonorable
and greedy of the sellswords, he might be the easiest to sway, but she was loath to go against Ser
Barristans counsel in such matters. Do as you think best. But do it soon. If Hizdahrs peace should
break, I want to be ready. I do not trust the slavers. I do not trust my husband. They will turn on us at
the first sign of weakness.
The Yunkaii grow weaker as well. The bloody flux has taken hold amongst the Tolosi, it is said,
and spread across the river to the third Ghiscari legion.
The pale mare. Daenerys sighed. Quaithe warned me of the pale mares coming. She told me of
the Dornish prince as well, the suns son. She told me much and more, but all in riddles. I cannot rely on
plague to save me from my enemies. Set Pretty Meris free. At once.
As you command. Though  Your Grace, if I may be so bold, there is another road 
The Dornish road? Dany sighed. The three Dornishmen had been at the feast, as befit Prince
Quentyns rank, though Reznak had taken care to seat them as far as possible from her husband.
Hizdahr did not seem to be of a jealous nature, but no man would be pleased by the presence of a rival
suitor near his new bride. The boy seems pleasant and well spoken, but 
House Martell is ancient and noble, and has been a leal friend to House Targaryen for more
than a century, Your Grace. I had the honor of serving with Prince Quentyns great-uncle in your fathers
seven. Prince Lewyn was as valiant a brother-in-arms as any man could wish for. Quentyn Martell is of
the same blood, if it please Your Grace.
It would please me if he had turned up with these fifty thousand swords he speaks of. Instead
he brings two knights and a parchment. Will a parchment shield my people from the Yunkaii? If he had
come with a fleet 
Sunspear has never been a sea power, Your Grace.

No. Dany knew enough of Westerosi history to know that. Nymeria had landed ten thousand
ships upon Dornes sandy shores, but when she wed her Dornish prince she had burned them all and
turned her back upon the sea forever. Dorne is too far away. To please this prince, I would need to
abandon all my people. You should send him home.
Dornishmen are notoriously stubborn, Your Grace. Prince Quentyns forebears fought your own
for the better part of two hundred years. He will not go without you.
Then he will die here, Daenerys thought, unless there is more to him than I can see. Is he still
within?
Drinking with his knights.
Bring him to me. It is time he met my children.
A flicker of doubt passed across the long, solemn face of Barristan Selmy. As you command.
Her king was laughing with Yurkhaz zo Yunzak and the other Yunkish lords. Dany did not think
that he would miss her, but just in case she instructed her handmaids to tell him that she was answering
a call of nature, should he inquire after her.
Ser Barristan was waiting by the steps with the Dornish prince. Martells square face was flushed
and ruddy. Too much wine, the queen concluded, though he was doing his best to conceal that. Apart
from the line of copper suns that ornamented his belt, the Dornishman was plainly dressed. They call
him Frog, Dany recalled. She could see why. He was not a handsome man.
She smiled. My prince. It is a long way down. Are you certain that you wish to do this?
If it would please Your Grace.
Then come.
A pair of Unsullied went down the steps before them, bearing torches; behind came two Brazen
Beasts, one masked as a fish, the other as a hawk. Even here in her own pyramid, on this happy night of
peace and celebration, Ser Barristan insisted on keeping guards about her everywhere she went. The
small company made the long descent in silence, stopping thrice to refresh themselves along the way.
The dragon has three heads, Dany said when they were on the final flight. My marriage need not be
the end of all your hopes. I know why you are here.
For you, said Quentyn, all awkward gallantry. No, said Dany. For fire and blood.
One of the elephants trumpeted at them from his stall. An answering roar from below made her
flush with sudden heat. Prince Quentyn looked up in alarm. The dragons know when she is near, Ser
Barristan told him.
Every child knows its mother, Dany thought. When the seas go dry and mountains blow in the
wind like leaves  They call to me. Come. She took Prince Quentyn by the hand and led him to the pit

where two of her dragons were confined. Remain outside, Dany told Ser Barristan, as the Unsullied
were opening the huge iron doors. Prince Quentyn will protect me. She drew the Dornish prince inside
with her, to stand above the pit.
The dragons craned their necks around, gazing at them with burning eyes. Viserion had
shattered one chain and melted the others. He clung to the roof of the pit like some huge white bat, his
claws dug deep into the burnt and crumbling bricks. Rhaegal, still chained, was gnawing on the carcass
of a bull. The bones on the floor of the pit were deeper than the last time she had been down here, and
the walls and floors were black and grey, more ash than brick. They would not hold much longer  but
behind them was only earth and stone. Can dragons tunnel through rock, like the firewyrms of old
Valyria? She hoped not.
The Dornish prince had gone as white as milk. I  I had heard that there were three.
Drogon is hunting. He did not need to hear the rest. The white one is Viserion, the green is
Rhaegal. I named them for my brothers. Her voice echoed off the scorched stone walls. It sounded
smalla girls voice, not the voice of a queen and conqueror, nor the glad voice of a new-made bride.
Rhaegal roared in answer, and fire filled the pit, a spear of red and yellow. Viserion replied, his
own flames gold and orange. When he flapped his wings, a cloud of grey ash filled the air. Broken chains
clanked and clattered about his legs. Quentyn Martell jumped back a foot.
A crueler woman might have laughed at him, but Dany squeezed his hand and said, They
frighten me as well. There is no shame in that. My children have grown wild and angry in the dark.
You  you mean to ride them?
One of them. All I know of dragons is what my brother told me when I was a girl, and some I
read in books, but it is said that even Aegon the Conqueror never dared mount Vhagar or Meraxes, nor
did his sisters ride Balerion the Black Dread. Dragons live longer than men, some for hundreds of years,
so Balerion had other riders after Aegon died  but no rider ever flew two dragons.
Viserion hissed again. Smoke rose between his teeth, and deep down in his throat they could
see gold fire churning.
They are  they are fearsome creatures.
They are dragons, Quentyn. Dany stood on her toes and kissed him lightly, once on each
cheek. And so am I.
The young prince swallowed. I  I have the blood of the dragon in me as well, Your Grace. I can
trace my lineage back to the first Daenerys, the Targaryen princess who was sister to King Daeron the
Good and wife to the Prince of Dorne. He built the Water Gardens for her.
The Water Gardens? She knew little and less of Dorne or its history, if truth be told.

My fathers favorite palace. It would please me to show them to you one day. They are all of
pink marble, with pools and fountains, overlooking the sea.
They sound lovely. She drew him away from the pit. He does not belong here. He should never
have come. You ought to return there. My court is no safe place for you, I fear. You have more enemies
than you know. You made Daario look a fool, and he is not a man to forget such a slight.
I have my knights. My sworn shields.
Two knights. Daario has five hundred Stormcrows. And you would do well to beware of my lord
husband too. He seems a mild and pleasant man, I know, but do not be deceived. Hizdahrs crown
derives from mine, and he commands the allegiance of some of the most fearsome fighters in the world.
If one of them should think to win his favor by disposing of a rival 
I am a prince of Dorne, Your Grace. I will not run from slaves and sell swords.
Then you truly are a fool, Prince Frog. Dany gave her wild children one last lingering look. She
could hear the dragons screaming as she led the boy back to the door, and see the play of light against
the bricks, reflections of their fires. If I look back, I am lost. Ser Barristan will have summoned a pair of
sedan chairs to carry us back up to the banquet, but the climb can still be wearisome. Behind them, the
great iron doors closed with a resounding clang. Tell me of this other Daenerys. I know less than I
should of the history of my fathers kingdom. I never had a maester growing up. Only a brother.
It would be my pleasure, Your Grace, said Quentyn.
It was well past midnight before the last of their guests took their leave and Dany retired to her
own apartments to join her lord and king. Hizdahr at least was happy, if somewhat drunk. I keep my
promises, he told her, as Irri and Jhiqui were robing them for bed. You wished for peace, and it is
yours.
And you wished for blood, and soon enough I must give it to you, Dany thought, but what she
said was, I am grateful.
The excitement of the day had inflamed her husbands passions. No sooner had her handmaids
retired for the night than he tore the robe from her and tumbled her backwards into bed. Dany slid her
arms around him and let him have his way. Drunk as he was, she knew he would not be inside her long.
Nor was he. Afterward he nuzzled at her ear and whispered, Gods grant that we have made a
son tonight.
The words of Mirri Maz Duur rang in her head. When the sun rises in the west and sets in the
east. When the seas go dry and mountains blow in the wind like leaves. When your womb quickens
again, and you bear a living child. Then he will return, and not before. The meaning was plain enough;
Khal Drogo was as like to return from the dead as she was to bear a living child. But there are some

secrets she could not bring herself to share, even with a husband, so she let Hizdahr zo Loraq keep his
hopes.
Her noble husband was soon fast asleep. Daenerys could only twist and turn beside him. She
wanted to shake him, wake him, make him hold her, kiss her, fuck her again, but even if he did, he
would fall back to sleep again afterward, leaving her alone in the darkness. She wondered what Daario
was doing. Was he restless as well? Was he thinking about her? Did he love her, truly? Did he hate her
for marrying Hizdahr? I should never have taken him into my bed. He was only a sellsword, no fit consort
for a queen, and yet 
I knew that all along, but I did it anyway. My queen? said a soft voice in the darkness.
Dany flinched. Who is there?
Only Missandei. The Naathi scribe moved closer to the bed. This one heard you crying.
Crying? I was not crying. Why would I cry? I have my peace, I have my king, I have everything a
queen might wish for. You had a bad dream, that was all.
As you say, Your Grace. She bowed and made to go. Stay, said Dany. I do not wish to be
alone.
His Grace is with you, Missandei pointed out. His Grace is dreaming, but I cannot sleep. On
the morrow I must bathe in blood. The price of peace. She smiled wanly and patted the bed. Come.
Sit. Talk with me.
If it please you. Missandei sat down beside her. What shall we talk of?
Home, said Dany. Naath. Butterflies and brothers. Tell me of the things that make you happy,
the things that make you giggle, all your sweetest memories. Remind me that there is still good in the
world.
Missandei did her best. She was still talking when Dany finally fell to sleep, to dream queer,
half-formed dreams of smoke and fire.
The morning came too soon.
THEON
Day stole upon them just as Stannis had: unseen.
Winterfell had been awake for hours, its battlements and towers crammed with men in wool
and mail and leather awaiting an attack that never came. By the time the sky began to lighten the sound

of drums had faded away, though warhorns were heard thrice more, each time a little closer. And still
the snow fell.
The storm will end today, one of the surviving stableboys was insisting loudly. Why, it isnt
even winter. Theon would have laughed if he had dared. He remembered tales Old Nan had told them
of storms that raged for forty days and forty nights, for a year, for ten years  storms that buried castles
and cities and whole kingdoms under a hundred feet of snow.
He sat in the back of the Great Hall, not far from the horses, watching Abel, Rowan, and a mousy
brown-haired washerwoman called Squirrel attack slabs of stale brown bread fried in bacon grease.
Theon broke his own fast with a tankard of dark ale, cloudy with yeast and thick enough to chew on. A
few more tankards, and perhaps Abels plan might not seem quite so mad.
Roose Bolton entered, pale-eyed and yawning, accompanied by his plump and pregnant wife,
Fat Walda. Several lords and captains had preceded him, amongst them Whoresbane Umber, Aenys
Frey, and Roger Ryswell. Farther down the table Wyman Manderly sat wolfing down sausages and
boiled eggs, whilst old Lord Locke beside him spooned gruel into his toothless mouth.
Lord Ramsay soon appeared as well, buckling on his sword belt as he made his way to the front
of the hall. His mood is foul this morning. Theon could tell. The drums kept him awake all night, he
guessed, or someone has displeased him. One wrong word, an ill-considered look, an ill-timed laugh, any
of them could provoke his lordships wroth and cost a man a strip of skin. Please, mlord, dont look this
way. One glance would be all it would take for Ramsay to know everything. Hell see it written on my
face. Hell know. He always knows.
Theon turned to Abel. This will not work. His voice was pitched so low that even the horses
could not have overheard. We will be caught before we leave the castle. Even if we do escape, Lord
Ramsay will hunt us down, him and Ben Bones and the girls.
Lord Stannis is outside the walls, and not far by the sound of it. All we need do is reach him.
Abels fingers danced across the strings of his lute. The singers beard was brown, though his long hair
had largely gone to grey. If the Bastard does come after us, he might live long enough to rue it.
Think that, Theon thought. Believe that. Tell yourself its true. Ramsay will use your women as
his prey, he told the singer. Hell hunt them down, rape them, and feed their corpses to his dogs. If
they lead him a good chase, he may name his next litter of bitches after them. You hell flay. Him and
Skinner and Damon Dance-for-Me, they will make a game of it. Youll be begging them to kill you. He
clutched the singers arm with a maimed hand. You swore you would not let me fall into his hands
again. I have your word on that. He needed to hear it again.
Abels word, said Squirrel. Strong as oak. Abel himself only shrugged. No matter what, my
prince.
Up on the dais, Ramsay was arguing with his father. They were too far away for Theon to make
out any of the words, but the fear on Fat Waldas round pink face spoke volumes. He did hear Wyman

Manderly calling for more sausages and Roger Ryswells laughter at some jape from one-armed
Harwood Stout.
Theon wondered if he would ever see the Drowned Gods watery halls, or if his ghost would
linger here at Winterfell. Dead is dead. Better dead than Reek. If Abels scheme went awry, Ramsay
would make their dying long and hard. He will flay me from head to heel this time, and no amount of
begging will end the anguish. No pain Theon had ever known came close to the agony that Skinner could
evoke with a little flensing blade. Abel would learn that lesson soon enough. And for what? Jeyne, her
name is Jeyne, and her eyes are the wrong color. A mummer playing a part. Lord Bolton knows, and
Ramsay, but the rest are blind, even this bloody bard with his sly smiles. The jape is on you, Abel, you and
your murdering whores. Youll die for the wrong girl.
He had come this close to telling them the truth when Rowan had delivered him to Abel in the
ruins of the Burned Tower, but at the last instant he had held his tongue. The singer seemed intent on
making off with the daughter of Eddard Stark. If he knew that Lord Ramsays bride was but a stewards
whelp, well 
The doors of the Great Hall opened with a crash.
A cold wind came swirling through, and a cloud of ice crystals sparkled blue-white in the air.
Through it strode Ser Hosteen Frey, caked with snow to the waist, a body in his arms. All along the
benches men put down their cups and spoons to turn and gape at the grisly spectacle. The hall grew
quiet.
Another murder.
Snow slid from Ser Hosteens cloaks as he stalked toward the high table, his steps ringing against
the floor. A dozen Frey knights and men-at-arms entered behind him. One was a boy Theon knewBig
Walder, the little one, fox-faced and skinny as a stick. His chest and arms and cloak were spattered with
blood.
The scent of it set the horses to screaming. Dogs slid out from under the tables, sniffing. Men
rose from the benches. The body in Ser Hosteens arms sparkled in the torchlight, armored in pink frost.
The cold outside had frozen his blood.
My brother Merretts son. Hosteen Frey lowered the body to the floor before the dais.
Butchered like a hog and shoved beneath a snowbank. A boy.
Little Walder, thought Theon. The big one. He glanced at Rowan. There are six of them, he
remembered. Any of them could have done this. But the washerwoman felt his eyes. This was no work
of ours, she said.
Be quiet, Abel warned her.

Lord Ramsay descended from the dais to the dead boy. His father rose more slowly, pale-eyed,
still-faced, solemn. This was foul work. For once Roose Boltons voice was loud enough to carry.
Where was the body found?
Under that ruined keep, my lord, replied Big Walder. The one with the old gargoyles. The
boys gloves were caked with his cousins blood. I told him not to go out alone, but he said he had to
find a man who owed him silver.
What man? Ramsay demanded. Give me his name. Point him out to me, boy, and I will make
you a cloak of his skin.
He never said, my lord. Only that he won the coin at dice. The Frey boy hesitated. It was
some White Harbor men who taught dice. I couldnt say which ones, but it was them.
My lord, boomed Hosteen Frey. We know the man who did this. Killed this boy and all the
rest. Not by his own hand, no. He is too fat and craven to do his own killing. But by his word. He turned
to Wyman Manderly. Do you deny it?
The Lord of White Harbor bit a sausage in half. I confess  He wiped the grease from his lips
with his sleeve.  I confess that I know little of this poor boy. Lord Ramsays squire, was he not? How
old was the lad?
Nine, on his last nameday.
So young, said Wyman Manderly. Though mayhaps this was a blessing. Had he lived, he
would have grown up to be a Frey.
Ser Hosteen slammed his foot into the tabletop, knocking it off its trestles, back into Lord
Wymans swollen belly. Cups and platters flew, sausages scattered everywhere, and a dozen Manderly
men came cursing to their feet. Some grabbed up knives, platters, flagons, anything that might serve as
a weapon.
Ser Hosteen Frey ripped his longsword from its scabbard and leapt toward Wyman Manderly.
The Lord of White Harbor tried to jerk away, but the tabletop pinned him to his chair. The blade slashed
through three of his four chins in a spray of bright red blood. Lady Walda gave a shriek and clutched at
her lord husbands arm. Stop, Roose Bolton shouted. Stop this madness. His own men rushed
forward as the Manderlys vaulted over the benches to get at the Freys. One lunged at Ser Hosteen with
a dagger, but the big knight pivoted and took his arm off at the shoulder. Lord Wyman pushed to his
feet, only to collapse. Old Lord Locke was shouting for a maester as Manderly flopped on the floor like a
clubbed walrus in a spreading pool of blood. Around him dogs fought over sausages.
It took two score Dreadfort spearmen to part the combatants and put an end to the carnage. By
that time six White Harbor men and two Freys lay dead upon the floor. A dozen more were wounded
and one of the Bastards Boys, Luton, was dying noisily, crying for his mother as he tried to shove a
fistful of slimy entrails back through a gaping belly wound. Lord Ramsay silenced him, yanking a spear

from one of Steelshankss men and driving it down through Lutons chest. Even then the rafters still rang
with shouts and prayers and curses, the shrieks of terrified horses and the growls of Ramsays bitches.
Steelshanks Walton had to slam the butt of his spear against the floor a dozen times before the hall
quieted enough for Roose Bolton to be heard.
I see you all want blood, the Lord of the Dreadfort said. Maester Rhodry stood beside him, a
raven on his arm. The birds black plumage shone like coal oil in the torchlight. Wet, Theon realized. And
in his lordships hand, a parchment. That will be wet as well. Dark wings, dark words. Rather than use
our swords upon each other, you might try them on Lord Stannis. Lord Bolton unrolled the parchment.
His host lies not three days ride from here, snowbound and starving, and I for one am tired of waiting
on his pleasure. Ser Hosteen, assemble your knights and men-at-arms by the main gates. As you are so
eager for battle, you shall strike our first blow. Lord Wyman, gather your White Harbor men by the east
gate. They shall go forth as well.
Hosteen Freys sword was red almost to the hilt. Blood spatters speckled his cheeks like freckles.
He lowered his blade and said, As my lord commands. But after I deliver you the head of Stannis
Baratheon, I mean to finish hacking off Lord Lards.
Four White Harbor knights had formed a ring around Lord Wyman, as Maester Medrick labored
over him to staunch his bleeding. First you must needs come through us, ser, said the eldest of them,
a hard-faced greybeard whose bloodstained surcoat showed three silvery mermaids upon a violet field.
Gladly. One at a time or all at once, it makes no matter.
Enough, roared Lord Ramsay, brandishing his bloody spear. Another threat, and Ill gut you all
myself. My lord father has spoken! Save your wroth for the pretender Stannis.
Roose Bolton gave an approving nod. As he says. There will be time enough to fight each other
once we are done with Stannis. He turned his head, his pale cold eyes searching the hall until they
found the bard Abel beside Theon. Singer, he called, come sing us something soothing.
Abel bowed. If it please your lordship. Lute in hand, he sauntered to the dais, hopping nimb ly
over a corpse or two, and seated himself cross-legged on the high table. As he began to playa sad, soft
song that Theon Greyjoy did not recognizeSer Hosteen, Ser Aenys, and their fellow Freys turned away
to lead their horses from the hall.
Rowan grasped Theons arm. The bath. It must be now.
He wrenched free of her touch. By day? We will be seen.
The snow will hide us. Are you deaf? Bolton is sending forth his swords. We have to reach King
Stannis before they do.
But  Abel 
Abel can fend for himself, murmured Squirrel.

This is madness. Hopeless, foolish, doomed. Theon drained the last dregs of his ale and rose
reluctantly to his feet. Find your sisters. It takes a deal of water to fill my ladys tub.
Squirrel slipped away, soft-footed as she always was. Rowan walked Theon from the hall. Since
she and her sisters had found him in the godswood, one of them had dogged his every step, never
letting him out of sight. They did not trust him. Why should they? I was Reek before and might be Reek
again. Reek, Reek, it rhymes with sneak.
Outside the snow still fell. The snowmen the squires had built had grown into monstrous giants,
ten feet tall and hideously misshapen. White walls rose to either side as he and Rowan made their way
to the godswood; the paths between keep and tower and hall had turned into a maze of icy trenches,
shoveled out hourly to keep them clear. It was easy to get lost in that frozen labyrinth, but Theon
Greyjoy knew every twist and turning.
Even the godswood was turning white. A film of ice had formed upon the pool beneath the
heart tree, and the face carved into its pale trunk had grown a mustache of little icicles. At this hour they
could not hope to have the old gods to themselves. Rowan pulled Theon away from the north-men
praying before the tree, to a secluded spot back by the barracks wall, beside a pool of warm mud that
stank of rotten eggs. Even the mud was icing up about the edges, Theon saw. Winter is coming 
Rowan gave him a hard look. You have no right to mouth Lord Eddards words. Not you. Not
ever. After what you did
You killed a boy as well.
That was not us. I told you.
Words are wind. They are no better than me. Were just the same. You killed the others, why
not him? Yellow Dick
stank as bad as you. A pig of a man.
And Little Walder was a piglet. Killing him brought the Freys and Manderlys to dagger points,
that was cunning, you
Not us. Rowan grabbed him by the throat and shoved him back against the barracks wall, her
face an inch from his. Say it again and I will rip your lying tongue out, kinslayer.
He smiled through his broken teeth. You wont. You need my tongue to get you past the
guards. You need my lies.
Rowan spat in his face. Then she let him go and wiped her gloved hands on her legs, as if just
touching him had soiled her.
Theon knew he should not goad her. In her own way, this one was as dangerous as Skinner or
Damon Dance-for-Me. But he was cold and tired, his head was pounding, he had not slept in days. I

have done terrible things  betrayed my own, turned my cloak, ordered the death of men who trusted
me  but I am no kinslayer.
Starks boys were never brothers to you, aye. We know.
That was true, but it was not what Theon had meant. They were not my blood, but even so, I
never harmed them. The two we killed were just some millers sons. Theon did not want to think about
their mother. He had known the millers wife for years, had even bedded her. Big heavy breasts with
wide dark nipples, a sweet mouth, a merry laugh. Joys that I will never taste again.
But there was no use telling Rowan any of that. She would never believe his denials, any more
than he believed hers. There is blood on my hands, but not the blood of brothers, he said wearily.
And Ive been punished.
Not enough. Rowan turned her back on him.
Foolish woman. He might well be a broken thing, but Theon still wore a dagger. It would have
been a simple thing to slide it out and drive it down between her shoulder blades. That much he was still
capable of, missing teeth and broken teeth and all. It might even be a kindnessa quicker, cleaner end
than the one she and her sisters would face when Ramsay caught them.
Reek might have done it. Would have done it, in hopes it might please Lord Ramsay. These
whores meant to steal Ramsays bride; Reek could not allow that. But the old gods had known him, had
called him Theon. Ironborn, I was ironborn, Balon Greyjoys son and rightful heir to Pyke. The stumps of
his fingers itched and twitched, but he kept his dagger in its sheath.
When Squirrel returned, the other four were with her: gaunt grey-haired Myrtle, Willow
Witch-Eye with her long black braid, Frenya of the thick waist and enormous breasts, Holly with her
knife. Clad as serving girls in layers of drab grey roughspun, they wore brown woolen cloaks lined with
white rabbit fur. No swords, Theon saw. No axes, no hammers, no weapons but knives. Hollys cloak was
fastened with a silver clasp, and Frenya had a girdle of hempen rope wound about her middle from her
hips to breasts. It made her look even more massive than she was.
Myrtle had servants garb for Rowan. The yards are crawling with fools, she warned them.
They mean to ride out.
Kneelers, said Willow, with a snort of contempt. Their lordly lord spoke, they must obey.
Theyre going to die, chirped Holly, happily. Them and us, said Theon. Even if we do get
past the guards, how do you mean to get Lady Arya out?
Holly smiled. Six women go in, six come out. Who looks at serving girls? Well dress the Stark
girl up as Squirrel.
Theon glanced at Squirrel. They are almost of a size. It might work. And how does Squirrel get
out?

Squirrel answered for herself. Out a window, and straight down to the godswood. I was twelve
the first time my brother took me raiding south o your Wall. Thats where I got my name. My brother
said I looked like a squirrel running up a tree. Ive done that Wall six times since, over and back again. I
think I can climb down some stone tower.
Happy, turncloak? Rowan asked. Lets be about it.
Winterfells cavernous kitchen occupied a building all its own, set well apart from the castles
main halls and keeps in case of fire. Inside, the smells changed hour by houran ever-changing perfume
of roast meats, leeks and onions, fresh-baked bread. Roose Bolton had posted guards at the kitchen
door. With so many mouths to feed, every scrap of food was precious. Even the cooks and potboys were
watched constantly. But the guards knew Reek. They liked to taunt him when he came to fetch hot
water for Lady Aryas bath. None of them dared go further than that, though. Reek was known to be
Lord Ramsays pet.
The Prince of Stink is come for some hot water, one guard announced when Theon and his
serving girls appeared before him. He pushed the door open for them. Quick now, before all that sweet
warm air escapes.
Within, Theon grabbed a passing potboy by the arm. Hot water for mlady, boy, he
commanded. Six pails full, and see that its good and hot. Lord Ramsay wants her pink and clean.
Aye, mlord, the boy said. At once, mlord.
At once took longer than Theon would have liked. None of the big kettles was clean, so the
potboy had to scrub one out before filling it with water. Then it seemed to take forever to come to a
rolling boil and twice forever to fill six wooden pails. All the while Abels women waited, their faces
shadowed by their cowls. They are doing it all wrong. Real serving girls were always teasing the potboys,
flirting with the cooks, wheedling a taste of this, a bite of that. Rowan and her scheming sisters did not
want to attract notice, but their sullen silence soon had the guards giving them queer looks. Wheres
Maisie and Jez and tother girls? one asked Theon. The usual ones.
Lady Arya was displeased with them, he lied. Her water was cold before it reached the tub
last time.
The hot water filled the air with clouds of steam, melting the snowflakes as they came drifting
down. Back through the maze of ice-walled trenches went the procession. With every sloshing step the
water cooled. The passages were clogged with troops: armored knights in woolen surcoats and fur
cloaks, men-at-arms with spears across their shoulders, archers carrying unstrung bows and sheaves of
arrows, freeriders, grooms leading warhorses. The Frey men wore the badge of the two towers, those
from White Harbor displayed merman and trident. They shouldered through the storm in opposite
directions and eyed each other warily as they passed, but no swords were drawn. Not here. It may be
different out there in the woods.

Half a dozen seasoned Dreadfort men guarded the doors of the Great Keep. Another bloody
bath? said their serjeant when he saw the pails of steaming water. He had his hands tucked up into his
armpits against the cold. She had a bath last night. How dirty can one woman get in her own bed?
Dirtier than you know, when you share that bed with Ramsay, Theon thought, remembering the
wedding night and the things that he and Jeyne had been made to do. Lord Ramsays command.
Get in there, then, before the water freezes, the serjeant said. Two of the guards pushed open
the double doors.
The entryway was nigh as cold as the air outside. Holly kicked snow from her boots and lowered
the hood of her cloak. I thought that would be harder. Her breath frosted the air.
There are more guards upstairs at mlords bedchamber, Theon warned her. Ramsays men.
He dare not call them the Bastards Boys, not here. You never knew who might be listening. Keep your
heads down and your hoods up.
Do as he says, Holly, Rowan said. Theres some will know your face. We dont need that
trouble.
Theon led the way up the stairs. I have climbed these steps a thousand times before. As a boy he
would run up; descending, he would take the steps three at a time, leaping. Once he leapt right into Old
Nan and knocked her to the floor. That earned him the worst thrashing he ever had at Winterfell,
though it was almost tender compared to the beatings his brothers used to give him back on Pyke. He
and Robb had fought many a heroic battle on these steps, slashing at one another with wooden swords.
Good training, that; it brought home how hard it was to fight your way up a spiral stair against
determined opposition. Ser Rodrik liked to say that one good man could hold a hundred, fighting down.
That was long ago, though. They were all dead now. Jory, old Ser Rodrik, Lord Eddard, Harwin
and Hullen, Cayn and Desmond and Fat Tom, Alyn with his dreams of knighthood, Mikken who had given
him his first real sword. Even Old Nan, like as not.
And Robb. Robb who had been more a brother to Theon than any son born of Balon Greyjoys
loins. Murdered at the Red Wedding, butchered by the Freys. I should have been with him. Where was I?
I should have died with him.
Theon stopped so suddenly that Willow almost plowed into his back. The door to Ramsays
bedchamber was before him. And guarding it were two of the Bastards Boys, Sour Alyn and Grunt.
The old gods must wish us well. Grunt had no tongue and Sour Alyn had no wits, Lord Ramsay
liked to say. One was brutal, the other mean, but both had spent most of their lives in service at the
Dreadfort. They did as they were told.

I have hot water for the Lady Arya, Theon told them. Try a wash yourself, Reek, said Sour
Alyn. You smell like horse piss. Grunt grunted in agreement. Or perhaps that noise was meant to be a
laugh. But Alyn unlocked the door to the bedchamber, and Theon waved the women through.
No day had dawned inside this room. Shadows covered all. One last log crackled feebly amongst
the dying embers in the hearth, and a candle flickered on the table beside a rumpled, empty bed. The
girl is gone, Theon thought. She has thrown herself out a window in despair. But the windows here were
shuttered against the storm, sealed up by crusts of blown snow and frost. Where is she? Holly asked.
Her sisters emptied their pails into the big round wooden tub. Frenya shut the chamber door and put
her back against it. Where is she? Holly said again. Outside a horn was blowing. A trumpet. The Freys,
assembling for battle. Theon could feel an itching in his missing fingers.
Then he saw her. She was huddled in the darkest corner of the bed-chamber, on the floor,
curled up in a ball beneath a pile of wolfskins. Theon might never have spotted her but for the way she
trembled. Jeyne had pulled the furs up over herself to hide. From us? Or was she expecting her lord
husband? The thought that Ramsay might be coming made him want to scream. My lady. Theon could
not bring himself to call her Arya and dare not call her Jeyne. No need to hide. These are friends.
The furs stirred. An eye peered out, shining with tears. Dark, too dark. A brown eye. Theon?
Lady Arya. Rowan moved closer. You must come with us, and quickly. Weve come to take
you to your brother.
Brother? The girls face emerged from underneath the wolfskins. I  I have no brothers.
She has forgotten who she is. She has forgotten her name. Thats so, said Theon, but you had
brothers once. Three of them. Robb and Bran and Rickon.
Theyre dead. I have no brothers now.
You have a half-brother, Rowan said. Lord Crow, he is.
Jon Snow?
Well take you to him, but you must come at once.
Jeyne pulled her wolfskins up to her chin. No. This is some trick. Its him, its my  my lord, my
sweet lord, he sent you, this is just some test to make sure that I love him. I do, I do, I love him more
than anything. A tear ran down her cheek. Tell him, you tell him. Ill do what he wants  whatever he
wants  with him or  or with the dog or  please  he doesnt need to cut my feet off, I wont try to
run away, not ever, Ill give him sons, I swear it, I swear it 
Rowan whistled softly. Gods curse the man.
Im a good girl, Jeyne whimpered. They trained me.

Willow scowled. Someone stop her crying. That guard was mute, not deaf. Theyre going to
hear.
Get her up, turncloak. Holly had her knife in hand. Get her up or I will. We have to go. Get the
little cunt up on her feet and shake some courage into her.
And if she screams? said Rowan.
We are all dead, Theon thought. I told them this was folly, but none of them would listen. Abel
had doomed them. All singers were half-mad. In songs, the hero always saved the maiden from the
monsters castle, but life was not a song, no more than Jeyne was Arya Stark. Her eyes are the wrong
color. And there are no heroes here, only whores. Even so, he knelt beside her, pulled down the furs,
touched her cheek. You know me. Im Theon, you remember. I know you too. I know your name.
My name? She shook her head. My name  its 
He put a finger to her lips. We can talk about that later. You need to be quiet now. Come with
us. With me. We will take you away from here. Away from him.
Her eyes widened. Please, she whispered. Oh, please.
Theon slipped his hand through hers. The stumps of his lost fingers tingled as he drew the girl to
her feet. The wolfskins fell away from her. Underneath them she was naked, her small pale breasts
covered with teeth marks. He heard one of the women suck in her breath. Rowan thrust a bundle of
clothes into his hands. Get her dressed. Its cold outside. Squirrel had stripped down to her
smallclothes, and was rooting through a carved cedar chest in search of something warmer. In the end
she settled for one of Lord Ramsays quilted doublets and a well-worn pair of breeches that flapped
about her legs like a ships sails in a storm.
With Rowans help, Theon got Jeyne Poole into Squirrels clothes. If the gods are good and the
guards are blind, she may pass. Now we are going out and down the steps, Theon told the girl. Keep
your head down and your hood up. Follow Holly. Dont run, dont cry, dont speak, dont look anyone in
the eye.
Stay close to me, Jeyne said. Dont leave me.
I will be right beside you, Theon promised as Squirrel slipped into Lady Aryas bed and pulled
the blanket up.
Frenya opened the bedchamber door. You give her a good wash, Reek? asked Sour Alyn as
they emerged. Grunt gave Willows breast a squeeze as she went by. They were fortunate in his choice.
If the man had touched Jeyne, she might have screamed. Then Holly would have opened his throat for
him with the knife hidden up her sleeve. Willow simply twisted away and past him.
For a moment Theon felt almost giddy. They never looked. They never saw. We walked the girl
right by them!

But on the steps the fear returned. What if they met Skinner or Damon Dance-for-Me or
Steelshanks Walton? Or Ramsay himself? Gods save me, not Ramsay, anyone but him. What use was it
to smuggle the girl out of her bedchamber? They were still inside the castle, with every gate closed and
barred and the battlements thick with sentries. Like as not, the guards outside the keep would stop
them. Holly and her knife would be of small use against six men in mail with swords and spears.
But the guards outside were huddled by the doors, backs turned against the icy wind and blown
snow. Even the serjeant did not spare them more than a quick glance. Theon felt a stab of pity for him
and his men. Ramsay would flay them all when he learned his bride was gone, and what he would do to
Grunt and Sour Alyn did not bear thinking about.
Not ten yards from the door, Rowan dropped her empty pail, and her sisters did likewise. The
Great Keep was already lost to sight behind them. The yard was a white wilderness, full of half-heard
sounds that echoed strangely amidst the storm. The icy trenches rose around them, knee high, then
waist high, then higher than their heads. They were in the heart of Winterfell with the castle all around
them, but no sign of it could be seen. They might have easily been lost amidst the Land of Always
Winter, a thousand leagues beyond the Wall. Its cold, Jeyne Poole whimpered as she stumbled along
at Theons side.
And soon to be colder. Beyond the castle walls, winter was waiting with its icy teeth. If we get
that far. This way, he said when they came to a junction where three trenches crossed.
Frenya, Holly, go with them, Rowan said. We will be along with Abel. Do not wait for us. And
with that, she whirled and plunged into the snow, toward the Great Hall. Willow and Myrtle hurried
after her, cloaks snapping in the wind.
Madder and madder, thought Theon Greyjoy. Escape had seemed unlikely with all six of Abels
women; with only two, it seemed impossible. But they had gone too far to return the girl to her
bedchamber and pretend none of this had ever happened. Instead he took Jeyne by the arm and drew
her down the pathway to the Battlements Gate. Only a half-gate, he reminded himself. Even if the
guards let us pass, there is no way through the outer wall. On other nights, the guards had allowed
Theon through, but all those times hed come alone. He would not pass so easily with three serving girls
in tow, and if the guards looked beneath Jeynes hood and recognized Lord Ramsays bride 
The passage twisted to the left. There before them, behind a veil of falling snow, yawned the
Battlements Gate, flanked by a pair of guards. In their wool and fur and leather, they looked as big as
bears. The spears they held were eight feet tall. Who goes there? one called out. Theon did not
recognize the voice. Most of the mans features were covered by the scarf about his face. Only his eyes
could be seen. Reek, is that you?
Yes, he meant to say. Instead he heard himself reply, Theon Greyjoy. I  I have brought some
women for you.

You poor boys must be freezing, said Holly. Here, let me warm you up. She slipped past the
guards spearpoint and reached up to his face, pulling loose the half-frozen scarf to plant a kiss upon his
mouth. And as their lips touched, her blade slid through the meat of his neck, just below the ear. Theon
saw the mans eyes widen. There was blood on Hollys lips as she stepped back, and blood dribbling
from his mouth as he fell.
The second guard was still gaping in confusion when Frenya grabbed the shaft of his spear. They
struggled for a moment, tugging, till the woman wrenched the weapon from his fingers and clouted him
across the temple with its butt. As he stumbled backwards, she spun the spear around and drove its
point through his belly with a grunt.
Jeyne Poole let out a shrill, high scream. Oh, bloody shit, said Holly. That will bring the
kneelers down on us, and no mistake. Run!
Theon clapped one hand around Jeynes mouth, grabbed her about the waist with the other,
and pulled her past the dead and dying guards, through the gate, and over the frozen moat. And
perhaps the old gods were still watching over them; the drawbridge had been left down, to allow
Winterfells defenders to cross to and from the outer battlements more quickly. From behind them
came alarums and the sounds of running feet, then the blast of a trumpet from the ramparts of the
inner wall.
On the drawbridge, Frenya stopped and turned. Go on. I will hold the kneelers here. The
bloody spear was still clutched in her big hands.
Theon was staggering by the time he reached the foot of the stair. He slung the girl over his
shoulder and began to climb. Jeyne had ceased to struggle by then, and she was such a little thing
besides  but the steps were slick with ice beneath soft powdery snow, and halfway up he lost his
footing and went down hard on one knee. The pain was so bad he almost lost the girl, and for half a
heartbeat he feared this was as far as he would go. But Holly pulled him back onto his feet, and between
the two of them they finally got Jeyne up to the battlements.
As he leaned up against a merlon, breathing hard, Theon could hear the shouting from below,
where Frenya was fighting half a dozen guards-men in the snow. Which way? he shouted at Holly.
Where do we go now? How do we get out?
The fury on Hollys face turned to horror. Oh, fuck me bloody. The rope. She gave a hysterical
laugh. Frenya has the rope. Then she grunted and grabbed her stomach. A quarrel had sprouted from
her gut. When she wrapped a hand around it, blood leaked through her fingers. Kneelers on the inner
wall  she gasped, before a second shaft appeared between her breasts. Holly grabbed for the nearest
merlon and fell. The snow that shed knocked loose buried her with a soft thump.
Shouts rang out from their left. Jeyne Poole was staring down at Holly as the snowy blanket over
her turned from white to red. On the inner wall the crossbowman would be reloading, Theon knew. He
started right, but there were men coming from that direction too, racing toward them with swords in

hand. Far off to the north he heard a warhorn sound. Stannis, he thought wildly. Stannis is our only
hope, if we can reach him. The wind was howling, and he and the girl were trapped.
The crossbow snapped. A bolt passed within a foot of him, shattering the crust of frozen snow
that had plugged the closest crenel. Of Abel, Rowan, Squirrel, and the others there was no sign. He and
the girl were alone. If they take us alive, they will deliver us to Ramsay.
Theon grabbed Jeyne about the waist and jumped.
DAENERYS
The sky was a merciless blue, without a wisp of cloud in sight. The bricks will soon be baking in
the sun, thought Dany. Down on the sands, the fighters will feel the heat through the soles of their
sandals.
Jhiqui slipped Danys silk robe from her shoulders and Irri helped her into her bathing pool. The
light of the rising sun shimmered on the water, broken by the shadow of the persimmon tree. Even if
the pits must open, must Your Grace go yourself? asked Missandei as she was washing the queens
hair.
Half of Meereen will be there to see me, gentle heart.
Your Grace, said Missandei, this one begs leave to say that half of Meereen will be there to
watch men bleed and die.
She is not wrong, the queen knew, but it makes no matter.
Soon Dany was as clean as she was ever going to be. She pushed herself to her feet, splashing
softly. Water ran down her legs and beaded on her breasts. The sun was climbing up the sky, and her
people would soon be gathering. She would rather have drifted in the fragrant pool all day, eating iced
fruit off silver trays and dreaming of a house with a red door, but a queen belongs to her people, not to
herself.
Jhiqui brought a soft towel to pat her dry. Khaleesi, which tokar will you want today? asked
Irri.
The yellow silk. The queen of the rabbits could not be seen without her floppy ears. The
yellow silk was light and cool, and it would be blistering down in the pit. The red sands will burn the soles
of those about to die. And over it, the long red veils. The veils would keep the wind from blowing sand
into her mouth. And the red will hide any blood spatters.

As Jhiqui brushed Danys hair and Irri painted the queens nails, they chattered happily about
the days matches. Missandei reemerged. Your Grace. The king bids you join him when you are dressed.
And Prince Quentyn has come with his Dornish Men. They beg a word, if that should please you.
Little about this day shall please me. Some other day.
At the base of the Great Pyramid, Ser Barristan awaited them beside an ornate open palanquin,
surrounded by Brazen Beasts. Ser Grandfather, Dany thought. Despite his age, he looked tall and
handsome in the armor that shed given him. I would be happier if you had Unsullied guards about you
today, Your Grace, the old knight said, as Hizdahr went to greet his cousin. Half of these Brazen Beasts
are untried freedmen. And the other half are Meereenese of doubtful loyalty, he left unsaid. Selmy
mistrusted all the Meereenese, even shavepates.
And untried they shall remain unless we try them.
A mask can hide many things, Your Grace. Is the man behind the owl mask the same owl who
guarded you yesterday and the day before? How can we know?
How should Meereen ever come to trust the Brazen Beasts if I do not? There are good brave
men beneath those masks. I put my life into their hands. Dany smiled for him. You fret too much, ser. I
will have you beside me, what other protection do I need?
I am one old man, Your Grace.
Strong Belwas will be with me as well.
As you say. Ser Barristan lowered his voice. Your Grace. We set the woman Meris free, as you
commanded. Before she went, she asked to speak with you. I met with her instead. She claims this
Tattered Prince meant to bring the Windblown over to your cause from the beginning. That he sent her
here to treat with you secretly, but the Dornishmen unmasked them and betrayed them before she
could make her own approach.
Treachery on treachery, the queen thought wearily. Is there no end to it? How much of this do
you believe, ser?
Little and less, Your Grace, but those were her words.
Will they come over to us, if need be?
She says they will. But for a price.
Pay it. Meereen needed iron, not gold. The Tattered Prince will want more than coin, Your
Grace. Meris says that he wants Pentos.
Pentos? Her eyes narrowed. How can I give him Pentos? It is half a world away.
He would be willing to wait, the woman Meris suggested. Until we march for Westeros.

And if I never march for Westeros? Pentos belongs to the Pentoshi. And Magister Illyrio is in
Pentos. He who arranged my marriage to Khal Drogo and gave me my dragon eggs. Who sent me you,
and Belwas, and Groleo. I owe him much and more. I will not repay that debt by giving his city to some
sellsword. No.
Ser Barristan inclined his head. Your Grace is wise.
Have you ever seen such an auspicious day, my love? Hizdahr zo Loraq commented when she
rejoined him. He helped Dany up onto the palanquin, where two tall thrones stood side by side.
Auspicious for you, perhaps. Less so for those who must die before the sun goes down.
All men must die, said Hizdahr, but not all can die in glory, with the cheers of the city ringing
in their ears. He lifted a hand to the soldiers on the doors. Open.
The plaza that fronted on her pyramid was paved with bricks of many colors, and the heat rose
from them in shimmering waves. People swarmed everywhere. Some rode litters or sedan chairs, some
forked donkeys, many were afoot. Nine of every ten were moving westward, down the broad brick
thoroughfare to Daznaks Pit. When they caught sight of the palanquin emerging from the pyramid, a
cheer went up from those nearest and spread across the plaza. How queer, the queen thought. They
cheer me on the same plaza where I once impaled one hundred sixty-three Great Masters.
A great drum led the royal procession to clear their way through the streets. Between each beat,
a shavepate herald in a shirt of polished copper disks cried for the crowd to part. BOMM. They come!
BOMM. Make way! BOMM. The queen! BOMM. The king! BOMM. Behind the drum marched
Brazen Beasts four abreast. Some carried cudgels, others staves; all wore pleated skirts, leathern
sandals, and patchwork cloaks sewn from squares of many colors to echo the many-colored bricks of
Meereen. Their masks gleamed in the sun: boars and bulls, hawks and herons, lions and tigers and
bears, fork-tongued serpents and hideous basilisks.
Strong Belwas, who had no love for horses, walked in front of them in his studded vest, his
scarred brown belly jiggling with every step. Irri and Jhiqui followed ahorse, with Aggo and Rakharo,
then Reznak in an ornate sedan chair with an awning to keep the sun off his head. Ser Barristan Selmy
rode at Danys side, his armor flashing in the sun. A long cloak flowed from his shoulders, bleached as
white as bone. On his left arm was a large white shield. A little farther back was Quentyn Martell, the
Dornish prince, with his two companions.
The column crept slowly down the long brick street. BOMM. They come! BOMM. Our queen.
Our king. BOMM. Make way.
Dany could hear her handmaids arguing behind her, debating who was going to win the days
final match. Jhiqui favored the gigantic Goghor, who looked more bull than man, even to the bronze ring
in his nose. Irri insisted that Belaquo Bonebreakers flail would prove the giants undoing. My handmaids
are Dothraki, she told herself. Death rides with every khalasar. The day she wed Khal Drogo, the arakhs
had flashed at her wedding feast, and men had died whilst others drank and mated. Life and death went

hand in hand amongst the horselords, and a sprinkling of blood was thought to bless a marriage. Her
new marriage would soon be drenched in blood. How blessed it would be.
BOMM, BOMM, BOMM, BOMM, BOMM, BOMM, came the drumbeats, faster than before,
suddenly angry and impatient. Ser Barristan drew his sword as the column ground to an abrupt halt
between the pink-and-white pyramid of Pahl and the green-and-black of Naqqan.
Dany turned. Why are we stopped?
Hizdahr stood. The way is blocked.
A palanquin lay overturned athwart their way. One of its bearers had collapsed to the bricks,
overcome by heat. Help that man, Dany commanded. Get him off the street before hes stepped on
and give him food and water. He looks as though he has not eaten in a fortnight.
Ser Barristan glanced uneasily to left and right. Ghiscari faces were visible on the terraces,
looking down with cool and unsympathetic eyes. Your Grace, I do not like this halt. This may be some
trap. The Sons of the Harpy
have been tamed, declared Hizdahr zo Loraq. Why should they seek to harm my queen
when she has taken me for her king and consort? Now help that man, as my sweet queen has
commanded. He took Dany by the hand and smiled.
The Brazen Beasts did as they were bid. Dany watched them at their work. Those bearers were
slaves before I came. I made them free. Yet that palanquin is no lighter.
True, said Hizdahr, but those men are paid to bear its weight now. Before you came, that
man who fell would have an overseer standing over him, stripping the skin off his back with a whip.
Instead he is being given aid.
It was true. A Brazen Beast in a boar mask had offered the litter bearer a skin of water. I
suppose I must be thankful for small victories, the queen said.
One step, then the next, and soon we shall be running. Together we shall make a new
Meereen. The street ahead had finally cleared. Shall we continue on?
What could she do but nod? One step, then the next, but where is it Im going?
At the gates of Daznaks Pit two towering bronze warriors stood locked in mortal combat. One
wielded a sword, the other an axe; the sculptor had depicted them in the act of killing one another, their
blades and bodies forming an archway overhead.
The mortal art, thought Dany.
She had seen the fighting pits many times from her terrace. The small ones dotted the face of
Meereen like pockmarks; the larger were weeping sores, red and raw. None compared to this one,
though. Strong Belwas and Ser Barristan fell in to either side as she and her lord husband passed

beneath the bronzes, to emerge at the top of a great brick bowl ringed by descending tiers of benches,
each a different color.
Hizdahr zo Loraq led her down, through black, purple, blue, green, white, yellow, and orange to
the red, where the scarlet bricks took the color of the sands below. Around them peddlers were selling
dog sausages, roast onions, and unborn puppies on a stick, but Dany had no need of such. Hizdahr had
stocked their box with flagons of chilled wine and sweetwater, with figs, dates, melons, and
pomegranates, with pecans and peppers and a big bowl of honeyed locusts. Strong Belwas bellowed,
Locusts! as he seized the bowl and began to crunch them by the handful.
Those are very tasty, advised Hizdahr. You ought to try a few yourself, my love. They are
rolled in spice before the honey, so they are sweet and hot at once.
That explains the way Belwas is sweating, Dany said. I believe I will content myself with figs
and dates.
Across the pit the Graces sat in flowing robes of many colors, clustered around the austere
figure of Galazza Galare, who alone amongst them wore the green. The Great Masters of Meereen
occupied the red and orange benches. The women were veiled, and the men had brushed and lacquered
their hair into horns and hands and spikes. Hizdahrs kin of the ancient line of Loraq seemed to favor
tokars of purple and indigo and lilac, whilst those of Pahl were striped in pink and white. The envoys
from Yunkai were all in yellow and filled the box beside the kings, each of them with his slaves and
servants. Meereenese of lesser birth crowded the upper tiers, more distant from the carnage. The black
and purple benches, highest and most distant from the sand, were crowded with freedmen and other
common folk. The sellswords had been placed up there as well, Daenerys saw, their captains seated
right amongst the common soldiers. She spied Brown Bens weathered face and Bloodbeards fiery red
whiskers and long braids.
Her lord husband stood and raised his hands. Great Masters! My queen has come this day, to
show her love for you, her people. By her grace and with her leave, I give you now your mortal art.
Meereen! Let Queen Daenerys hear your love!
Ten thousand throats roared out their thanks; then twenty thousand; then all. They did not call
her name, which few of them could pronounce. Mother! they cried instead; in the old dead tongue of
Ghis, the word was Mhysa! They stamped their feet and slapped their bellies and shouted, Mhysa,
Mhysa, Mhysa, until the whole pit seemed to tremble. Dany let the sound wash over her. I am not your
mother, she might have shouted, back, I am the mother of your slaves, of every boy who ever died upon
these sands whilst you gorged on honeyed locusts. Behind her, Reznak leaned in to whisper in her ear,
Magnificence, hear how they love you!
No, she knew, they love their mortal art. When the cheers began to ebb, she allowed to herself
to sit. Their box was in the shade, but her head was pounding. Jhiqui, she called, sweet water, if you
would. My throat is very dry.

Khrazz will have the honor of the days first kill, Hizdahr told her. There has never been a
better fighter.
Strong Belwas was better, insisted Strong Belwas.
Khrazz was Meereenese, of humble birtha tall man with a brush of stiff red-black hair running
down the center of his head. His foe was an ebon-skinned spearman from the Summer Isles whose
thrusts kept Khrazz at bay for a time, but once he slipped inside the spear with his shortsword, only
butchery remained. After it was done, Khrazz cut the heart from the black man, raised it above his head
red and dripping, and took a bite from it.
Khrazz believes the hearts of brave men make him stronger, said Hizdahr. Jhiqui murmured
her approval. Dany had once eaten a stallions heart to give strength to her unborn son  but that had
not saved Rhaego when the maegi murdered him in her womb. Three treasons shall you know. She was
the first, Jorah was the second, Brown Ben Plumm the third. Was she done with betrayals?
Ah, said Hizdahr, pleased. Now comes the Spotted Cat. See how he moves, my queen. A
poem on two feet.
The foe Hizdahr had found for the walking poem was as tall as Goghor and as broad as Belwas,
but slow. They were fighting six feet from Danys box when the Spotted Cat hamstrung him. As the man
stumbled to his knees, the Cat put a foot on his back and a hand around his head and opened his throat
from ear to ear. The red sands drank his blood, the wind his final words. The crowd screamed its
approval.
Bad fighting, good dying, said Strong Belwas. Strong Belwas hates it when they scream. He
had finished all the honeyed locusts. He gave a belch and took a swig of wine.
Pale Qartheen, black Summer Islanders, copper-skinned Dothraki, Tyr oshi with blue beards,
Lamb Men, Jogos Nhai, sullen Braavosi, brindle-skinned half-men from the jungles of Sothorosfrom
the ends of the world they came to die in Daznaks Pit. This one shows much promise, my sweet,
Hizdahr said of a Lysene youth with long blond hair that fluttered in the wind  but his foe grabbed a
handful of that hair, pulled the boy off-balance, and gutted him. In death he looked even younger than
he had with blade in hand. A boy, said Dany. He was only a boy.
Six-and-ten, Hizdahr insisted. A man grown, who freely chose to risk his life for gold and
glory. No children die today in Daznaks, as my gentle queen in her wisdom has decreed.
Another small victory. Perhaps I cannot make my people good, she told herself, but I should at
least try to make them a little less bad. Daenerys would have prohibited contests between women as
well, but Barsena Blackhair protested that she had as much right to risk her life as any man. The queen
had also wished to forbid the follies, comic combats where cripples, dwarfs, and crones had at one
another with cleavers, torches, and hammers (the more inept the fighters, the funnier the folly, it was
thought), but Hizdahr said his people would love her more if she laughed with them, and argued that
without such frolics, the cripples, dwarfs, and crones would starve. So Dany had relented.

It had been the custom to sentence criminals to the pits; that practice she agreed might resume,
but only for certain crimes. Murderers and rapers may be forced to fight, and all those who persist in
slaving, but not thieves or debtors.
Beasts were still allowed, though. Dany watched an elephant make short work of a pack of six
red wolves. Next a bull was set against a bear in a bloody battle that left both animals torn and dying.
The flesh is not wasted, said Hizdahr. The butchers use the carcasses to make a healthful stew for the
hungry. Any man who presents himself at the Gates of Fate may have a bowl.
A good law, Dany said. You have so few of them. We must make certain that this tradition is
continued.
After the beast fights came a mock battle, pitting six men on foot against six horsemen, the
former armed with shields and longswords, the latter with Dothraki arakhs. The mock knights were clad
in mail hauberks, whilst the mock Dothraki wore no armor. At first the riders seemed to have the
advantage, riding down two of their foes and slashing the ear from a third, but then the surviving
knights began to attack the horses, and one by one the riders were unmounted and slain, to Jhiquis
great disgust. That was no true khalasar, she said.
These carcasses are not destined for your healthful stew, I would hope, Dany said, as the slain
were being removed.
The horses, yes, said Hizdahr. The men, no.
Horsemeat and onions makes you strong, said Belwas.
The battle was followed by the days first folly, a tilt between a pair of jousting dwarfs,
presented by one of the Yunkish lords that Hizdahr had invited to the games. One rode a hound, the
other a sow. Their wooden armor had been freshly painted, so one bore the stag of the usurper Robert
Baratheon, the other the golden lion of House Lannister. That was for her sake, plainly. Their antics soon
had Belwas snorting laughter, though Danys smile was faint and forced. When the dwarf in red tumbled
from the saddle and began to chase his sow across the sands, whilst the dwarf on the dog galloped after
him, whapping at his buttocks with a wooden sword, she said, This is sweet and silly, but 
Be patient, my sweet, said Hizdahr. They are about to loose the lions.
Daenerys gave him a quizzical look. Lions?
Three of them. The dwarfs will not expect them.
She frowned. The dwarfs have wooden swords. Wooden armor. How do you expect them to
fight lions?
Badly, said Hizdahr, though perhaps they will surprise us. More like they will shriek and run
about and try to climb out of the pit. That is what makes this a folly.

Dany was not pleased. I forbid it.
Gentle queen. You do not want to disappoint your people.
You swore to me that the fighters would be grown men who had freely consented to risk their
lives for gold and honor. These dwarfs did not consent to battle lions with wooden swords. You will stop
it. Now.
The kings mouth tightened. For a heartbeat Dany thought she saw a flash of anger in those
placid eyes. As you command. Hizdahr beckoned to his pitmaster. No lions, he said when the man
trotted over, whip in hand.
Not one, Magnificence? Where is the fun in that?
My queen has spoken. The dwarfs will not be harmed.
The crowd will not like it.
Then bring on Barsena. That should appease them.
Your Worship knows best. The pitmaster snapped his whip and shouted out commands. The
dwarfs were herded off, pig and dog and all, as the spectators hissed their disapproval and pelted them
with stones and rotten fruit.
A roar went up as Barsena Blackhair strode onto the sands, naked save for breechclout and
sandals. A tall, dark woman of some thirty years, she moved with the feral grace of a panther. Barsena
is much loved, Hizdahr said, as the sound swelled to fill the pit. The bravest woman I have ever seen.
Strong Belwas said, Fighting girls is not so brave. Fighting Strong Belwas would be brave.
Today she fights a boar, said Hizdahr.
Aye, thought Dany, because you could not find a woman to face her, no matter how plump the
purse. And not with a wooden sword, it would seem.
The boar was a huge beast, with tusks as long as a mans forearm and small eyes that swam with
rage. She wondered whether the boar that had killed Robert Baratheon had looked as fierce. A terrible
creature and a terrible death. For a heartbeat she felt almost sorry for the Usurper.
Barsena is very quick, Reznak said. She will dance with the boar, Magnificence, and slice him
when he passes near her. He will be awash in blood before he falls, you shall see.
It began just as he said. The boar charged, Barsena spun aside, her blade flashed silver in the
sun. She needs a spear, Ser Barristan said, as Barsena vaulted over the beasts second charge. That is
no way to fight a boar. He sounded like someones fussy old grandsire, just as Daario was always
saying.

Barsenas blade was running red, but the boar soon stopped. He is smarter than a bull, Dany
realized. He will not charge again. Barsena came to the same realization. Shouting, she edged closer to
the boar, tossing her knife from hand to hand. When the beast backed away, she cursed and slashed at
his snout, trying to provoke him  and succeeding. This time her leap came an instant too late, and a
tusk ripped her left leg open from knee to crotch.
A moan went up from thirty thousand throats. Clutching at her torn leg, Barsena dropped her
knife and tried to hobble off, but before she had gone two feet the boar was on her once again. Dany
turned her face away. Was that brave enough? she asked Strong Belwas, as a scream rang out across
the sand.
Fighting pigs is brave, but it is not brave to scream so loud. It hurts Strong Belwas in the ears.
The eunuch rubbed his swollen stomach, crisscrossed with old white scars. It makes Strong Belwas sick
in his belly too.
The boar buried his snout in Barsenas belly and began rooting out her entrails. The smell was
more than the queen could stand. The heat, the flies, the shouts from the crowd  I cannot breathe. She
lifted her veil and let it flutter away. She took her tokar off as well. The pearls rattled softly against one
another as she unwound the silk.
Khaleesi? Irri asked. What are you doing?
Taking off my floppy ears. A dozen men with boar spears came trotting out onto the sand to
drive the boar away from the corpse and back to his pen. The pitmaster was with them, a long barbed
whip in his hand. As he snapped it at the boar, the queen rose. Ser Barristan, will you see me safely
back to my garden?
Hizdahr looked confused. There is more to come. A folly, six old women, and three more
matches. Belaquo and Goghor!
Belaquo will win, Irri declared. It is known.
It is not known, Jhiqui said. Belaquo will die.
One will die, or the other will, said Dany. And the one who lives will die some other day. This
was a mistake.
Strong Belwas ate too many locusts. There was a queasy look on Belwass broad brown face.
Strong Belwas needs milk.
Hizdahr ignored the eunuch. Magnificence, the people of Meereen have come to celebrate our
union. You heard them cheering you. Do not cast away their love.
It was my floppy ears they cheered, not me. Take me from this abbatoir, husband. She could
hear the boar snorting, the shouts of the spear-men, the crack of the pitmasters whip.

Sweet lady, no. Stay only a while longer. For the folly, and one last match. Close your eyes, no
one will see. They will be watching Belaquo and Ghogor. This is no time for
A shadow rippled across his face.
The tumult and the shouting died. Ten thousand voices stilled. Every eye turned skyward. A
warm wind brushed Danys cheeks, and above the beating of her heart she heard the sound of wings.
Two spearmen dashed for shelter. The pitmaster froze where he stood. The boar went snuffling back to
Barsena. Strong Belwas gave a moan, stumbled from his seat, and fell to his knees.
Above them all the dragon turned, dark against the sun. His scales were black, his eyes and
horns and spinal plates blood red. Ever the largest of her three, in the wild Drogon had grown larger still.
His wings stretched twenty feet from tip to tip, black as jet. He flapped them once as he swept back
above the sands, and the sound was like a clap of thunder. The boar raised his head, snorting  and
flame engulfed him, black fire shot with red. Dany felt the wash of heat thirty feet away. The beasts
dying scream sounded almost human. Drogon landed on the carcass and sank his claws into the smoking
flesh. As he began to feed, he made no distinction between Barsena and the boar.
Oh, gods, moaned Reznak, hes eating her! The seneschal covered his mouth. Strong Belwas
was retching noisily. A queer look passed across Hizdahr zo Loraqs long, pale facepart fear, part lust,
part rapture. He licked his lips. Dany could see the Pahls streaming up the steps, clutching their tokars
and tripping over the fringes in their haste to be away. Others followed. Some ran, shoving at one
another. More stayed in their seats.
One man took it on himself to be a hero.
He was one of the spearmen sent out to drive the boar back to his pen. Perhaps he was drunk,
or mad. Perhaps he had loved Barsena Blackhair from afar or had heard some whisper of the girl Hazzea.
Perhaps he was just some common man who wanted bards to sing of him. He darted forward, his boar
spear in his hands. Red sand kicked up beneath his heels, and shouts rang out from the seats. Drogon
raised his head, blood dripping from his teeth. The hero leapt onto his back and drove the iron
spearpoint down at the base of the dragons long scaled neck.
Dany and Drogon screamed as one.
The hero leaned into his spear, using his weight to twist the point in deeper. Drogon arched
upward with a hiss of pain. His tail lashed sideways. She watched his head crane around at the end of
that long serpentine neck, saw his black wings unfold. The dragonslayer lost his footing and went
tumbling to the sand. He was trying to struggle back to his feet when the dragons teeth closed hard
around his forearm. No was all the man had time to shout. Drogon wrenched his arm from his
shoulder and tossed it aside as a dog might toss a rodent in a rat pit.
Kill it, Hizdahr zo Loraq shouted to the other spearmen. Kill the beast!
Ser Barristan held her tightly. Look away, Your Grace.

Let me go! Dany twisted from his grasp. The world seemed to slow as she cleared the parapet.
When she landed in the pit she lost a sandal. Running, she could feel the sand between her toes, hot
and rough. Ser Barristan was calling after her. Strong Belwas was still vomiting. She ran faster.
The spearmen were running too. Some were rushing toward the dragon, spears in hand. Others
were rushing away, throwing down their weapons as they fled. The hero was jerking on the sand, the
bright blood pouring from the ragged stump of his shoulder. His spear remained in Drogons back,
wobbling as the dragon beat his wings. Smoke rose from the wound. As the other spears closed in, the
dragon spat fire, bathing two men in black flame. His tail lashed sideways and caught the pitmaster
creeping up behind him, breaking him in two. Another attacker stabbed at his eyes until the dragon
caught him in his jaws and tore his belly out. The Meereenese were screaming, cursing, howling. Dany
could hear someone pounding after her. Drogon, she screamed. Drogon.
His head turned. Smoke rose between his teeth. His blood was smoking too, where it dripped
upon the ground. He beat his wings again, sending up a choking storm of scarlet sand. Dany stumbled
into the hot red cloud, coughing. He snapped.
No was all that she had time to say. No, not me, dont you know me? The black teeth closed
inches from her face. He meant to tear my head off. The sand was in her eyes. She stumbled over the
pitmasters corpse and fell on her backside.
Drogon roared. The sound filled the pit. A furnace wind engulfed her. The dragons long scaled
neck stretched toward her. When his mouth opened, she could see bits of broken bone and charred
flesh between his black teeth. His eyes were molten. I am looking into hell, but I dare not look away. She
had never been so certain of anything. If I run from him, he will burn me and devour me. In Westeros the
septons spoke of seven hells and seven heavens, but the Seven Kingdoms and their gods were far away.
If she died here, Dany wondered, would the horse god of the Doth raki part the grass and claim her for
his starry khalasar, so she might ride the nightlands beside her sun-and-stars? Or would the angry gods
of Ghis send their harpies to seize her soul and drag her down to torment? Drogon roared full in her
face, his breath hot enough to blister skin. Off to her right Dany heard Barristan Selmy shouting, Me!
Try me. Over here. Me!
In the smoldering red pits of Drogons eyes, Dany saw her own reflection. How small she looked,
how weak and frail and scared. I cannot let him see my fear. She scrabbled in the sand, pushing against
the pitmasters corpse, and her fingers brushed against the handle of his whip. Touching it made her feel
braver. The leather was warm, alive. Drogon roared again, the sound so loud that she almost dropped
the whip. His teeth snapped at her.
Dany hit him. No, she screamed, swinging the lash with all the strength that she had in her.
The dragon jerked his head back. No, she screamed again. NO! The barbs raked along his snout.
Drogon rose, his wings covering her in shadow. Dany swung the lash at his scaled belly, back and forth
until her arm began to ache. His long serpentine neck bent like an archers bow. With a hisssssss, he spat
black fire down at her. Dany darted underneath the flames, swinging the whip and shouting, No, no, no.
Get DOWN! His answering roar was full of fear and fury, full of pain. His wings beat once, twice 

 and folded. The dragon gave one last hiss and stretched out flat upon his belly. Black blood
was flowing from the wound where the spear had pierced him, smoking where it dripped onto the
scorched sands. He is fire made flesh, she thought, and so am I.
Daenerys Targaryen vaulted onto the dragons back, seized the spear, and ripped it out. The
point was half-melted, the iron red-hot, glowing. She flung it aside. Drogon twisted under her, his
muscles rippling as he gathered his strength. The air was thick with sand. Dany could not see, she could
not breathe, she could not think. The black wings cracked like thunder, and suddenly the scarlet sands
were falling away beneath her.
Dizzy, Dany closed her eyes. When she opened them again, she glimpsed the Meereenese
beneath her through a haze of tears and dust, pouring up the steps and out into the streets.
The lash was still in her hand. She flicked it against Drogons neck and cried, Higher! Her other
hand clutched at his scales, her fingers scrabbling for purchase. Drogons wide black wings beat the air.
Dany could feel the heat of him between her thighs. Her heart felt as if it were about to burst. Yes, she
thought, yes, now, now, do it, do it, take me, take me, FLY!
JON
He was not a tall man, Tormund Giantsbane, but the gods had given him a broad chest and
massive belly. Mance Rayder had named him Tormund Horn-Blower for the power of his lungs, and was
wont to say that Tormund could laugh the snow off mountaintops. In his wroth, his bellows reminded
Jon of a mammoth trumpeting.
That day Tormund bellowed often and loudly. He roared, he shouted, he slammed his fist
against the table so hard that a flagon of water overturned and spilled. A horn of mead was never far
from his hand, so the spittle he sprayed when making threats was sweet with honey. He called Jon Snow
a craven, a liar, and a turncloak, cursed him for a black-hearted buggering kneeler, a robber, and a
carrion crow, accused him of wanting to fuck the free folk up the arse. Twice he flung his drinking horn
at Jons head, though only after he had emptied it. Tormund was not the sort of man to waste good
mead. Jon let it all wash over him. He never raised his own voice nor answered threat with threat, but
neither did he give more ground than he had come prepared to give.
Finally, as the shadows of the afternoon grew long outside the tent, Tormund
GiantsbaneTall-Talker, Horn-Blower, and Breaker of Ice, Tormund Thunderfist, Husband to Bears,
Mead-King of Ruddy Hall, Speaker to Gods and Father of Hoststhrust out his hand. Done then, and
may the gods forgive me. Theres a hundred mothers never will, I know.
Jon clasped the offered hand. The words of his oath rang through his head. I am the sword in the
darkness. I am the watcher on the walls. I am the fire that burns against the cold, the light that brings
the dawn, the horn that wakes the sleepers, the shield that guards the realms of men. And for him a new

refrain: I am the guard who opened the gates and let the foe march through. He would have given much
and more to know that he was doing the right thing. But he had gone too far to turn back. Done and
done, he said.
Tormunds grip was bone-crushing. That much had not changed about him. The beard was the
same as well, though the face under that thicket of white hair had thinned considerably, and there were
deep lines graven in those ruddy cheeks. Mance should have killed you when he had the chance, he
said as he did his best to turn Jons hand to pulp and bone. Gold for gruel, and boys  a cruel price.
Whatever happened to that sweet lad I knew?
They made him lord commander. A fair bargain leaves both sides unhappy, Ive heard it said.
Three days?
If I live that long. Some o my own will spit on me when they hear these terms. Tormund
released Jons hand. Your crows will grumble too, if I know them. And I ought to. I have killed more o
you black buggers than I can count.
It might be best if you did not mention that so loudly when you come south of the Wall.
Har! Tormund laughed. That had not changed either; he still laughed easily and often. Wise
words. Id not want you crows to peck me to death. He slapped Jons back. When all my folk are safe
behind your Wall, well share a bit o meat and mead. Till then  The wildling pulled off the band from
his left arm and tossed it at Jon, then did the same with its twin upon his right. Your first payment. Had
those from my father and him from his. Now theyre yours, you thieving black bastard.
The armbands were old gold, solid and heavy, engraved with the ancient runes of the First Men.
Tormund Giantsbane had worn them as long as Jon had known him; they had seemed as much a part of
him as his beard. The Braavosi will melt these down for the gold. That seems a shame. Perhaps you
ought to keep them.
No. Ill not have it said that Tormund Thunderfist made the free folk give up their treasures
whilst he kept his own. He grinned. But Ill keep the ring I wear about me member. Much bigger than
those little things. On you itd be a torque.
Jon had to laugh. You never change.
Oh, I do. The grin melted away like snow in summer. I am not the man I was at Ruddy Hall.
Seen too much death, and worse things too. My sons  Grief twisted Tormunds face. Dormund was
cut down in the battle for the Wall, and him still half a boy. One o your kings knights did for him, some
bastard all in grey steel with moths upon his shield. I saw the cut, but my boy was dead before I reached
him. And Torwynd  it was the cold claimed him. Always sickly, that one. He just up and died one night.
The worst o it, before we ever knew hed died he rose pale with them blue eyes. Had to see to him
mself. That was hard, Jon. Tears shone in his eyes. He wasnt much of a man, truth be told, but hed
been me little boy once, and I loved him.

Jon put a hand on his shoulder. I am so sorry.
Why? Werent your doing. Theres blood on your hands, aye, same as mine. But not his.
Tormund shook his head. I still have two strong sons.
Your daughter  ?
Munda. That brought Tormunds smile back. Took that Longspear Ryk to husband, if you
believe it. Boys got more cock than sense, you ask me, but he treats her well enough. I told him if he
ever hurt her, Id yank his member off and beat him bloody with it. He gave Jon another hearty slap.
Time you were going back. Keep you any longer, theyre like to think we ate you.
Dawn, then. Three days from now. The boys first.
I heard you the first ten times, crow. A mand think there was no trust between us. He spat.
Boys first, aye. Mammoths go the long way round. You make sure Eastwatch expects them. Ill make
sure theres no fighting, nor rushing at your bloody gate. Nice and orderly well be, ducklings in a row.
And me the mother duck. Har! Tormund led Jon from his tent.
Outside the day was bright and cloudless. The sun had returned to the sky after a fortnights
absence, and to the south the Wall rose blue-white and glittering. There was a saying Jon had heard
from the older men at Castle Black: the Wall has more moods than Mad King Aerys, theyd say, or
sometimes, the Wall has more moods than a woman. On cloudy days it looked to be white rock. On
moonless nights it was as black as coal. In snowstorms it seemed carved of snow. But on days like this,
there was no mistaking it for anything but ice. On days like this the Wall shimmered bright as a septons
crystal, every crack and crevasse limned by sunlight, as frozen rainbows danced and died behind
translucent ripples. On days like this the Wall was beautiful.
Tormunds eldest son stood near the horses, talking with Leathers. Tall Toregg, he was called
amongst the free folk. Though he barely had an inch on Leathers, he overtopped his father by a foot.
Hareth, the strapping Moles Town boy called Horse, huddled near the fire, his back to the other two. He
and Leathers were the only men Jon had brought with him to the parley; any more might have been
seen as a sign of fear, and twenty men would have been of no more use than two if Tormund had been
intent on blood. Ghost was the only protection Jon needed; the direwolf could sniff out foes, even those
who hid their enmity behind smiles.
Ghost was gone, though. Jon peeled off one black glove, put two fingers in his mouth, and
whistled. Ghost! To me.
From above came the sudden sound of wings. Mormonts raven flapped from a limb of an old
oak to perch upon Jons saddle. Corn, it cried. Corn, corn, corn.
Did you follow me as well? Jon reached to shoo the bird away but ended up stroking its
feathers. The raven cocked its eye at him. Snow, it muttered, bobbing its head knowingly. Then Ghost
emerged from between two trees, with Val beside him.

They look as though they belong together. Val was clad all in white; white woolen breeches
tucked into high boots of bleached white leather, white bearskin cloak pinned at the shoulder with a
carved weirwood face, white tunic with bone fastenings. Her breath was white as well  but her eyes
were blue, her long braid the color of dark honey, her cheeks flushed red from the cold. It had been a
long while since Jon Snow had seen a sight so lovely.
Have you been trying to steal my wolf? he asked her. Why not? If every woman had a
direwolf, men would be much sweeter. Even crows.
Har! laughed Tormund Giantsbane. Dont bandy words with this one, Lord Snow, shes too
clever for the likes o you and me. Best steal her quick, before Toregg wakes up and takes her first.
What had that oaf Axell Florent said of Val? A nubile girl, not hard to look upon. Good hips,
good breasts, well made for whelping children. All true enough, but the wildling woman was so much
more. She had proved that by finding Tormund where seasoned rangers of the Watch had failed. She
may not be a princess, but she would make a worthy wife for any lord.
But that bridge had been burned a long time ago, and Jon himself had thrown the torch. Toregg
is welcome to her, he announced. I took a vow.
She wont mind. Will you, girl?
Val patted the long bone knife on her hip. Lord Crow is welcome to steal into my bed any night
he dares. Once hes been gelded, keeping those vows will come much easier for him.
Har! Tormund snorted again. You hear that, Toregg? Stay away from this one. I have one
daughter, dont need another. Shaking his head, the wildling chief ducked back inside his tent.
As Jon scratched Ghost behind the ear, Toregg brought up Vals horse for her. She still rode the
grey garron that Mully had given her the day she left the Wall, a shaggy, stunted thing blind in one eye.
As she turned it toward the Wall, she asked, How fares the little monster?
Twice as big as when you left us, and thrice as loud. When he wants the teat, you can hear him
wail in Eastwatch. Jon mounted his own horse.
Val fell in beside him. So  I brought you Tormund, as I said I would. What now? Am I to be
returned to my old cell?
Your old cell is occupied. Queen Selyse has claimed the Kings Tower, for her own. Do you
remember Hardins Tower?
The one that looks about to collapse?
Its looked that way for a hundred years. Ive had the top floor made ready for you, my lady.
You will have more room than in the Kings Tower, though you may not be as comfortable. No one has
ever called it Hardins Palace.

I would choose freedom over comfort every time.
Freedom of the castle you shall have, but I regret to say you must remain a captive. I can
promise that you will not be troubled by unwanted visitors, however. My own men guard Hardins
Tower, not the queens. And Wun Wun sleeps in the entry hall.
A giant as protector? Even Dalla could not boast of that.
Tormunds wildlings watched them pass, peering out from tents and lean-tos beneath leafless
trees. For every man of fighting age, Jon saw three women and as many children, gaunt-faced things
with hollow cheeks and staring eyes. When Mance Rayder had led the free folk down upon the Wall, his
followers drove large herds of sheep and goats and swine before them, but now the only animals to be
seen were the mammoths. If not for the ferocity of the giants, those would have been slaughtered too,
he did not doubt. There was a lot of meat on a mammoths bones.
Jon saw signs of sickness too. That disquieted him more than he could say. If Tormunds band
were starved and sick, what of the thousands who had followed Mother Mole to Hardhome? Cotter
Pyke should reach them soon. If the winds were kind, his fleet might well be on its way back to Eastwatch
even now, with as many of the free folk as he could cram aboard.
How did you fare with Tormund? asked Val. Ask me a year from now. The hard part still
awaits me. The part where I convince mine own to eat this meal Ive cooked for them. None of them are
going to like the taste, I fear.
Let me help.
You have. You brought me Tormund.
I can do more.
Why not? thought Jon. They are all convinced she is a princess. Val looked the part and rode as if
she had been born on horseback. A warrior princess, he decided, not some willowy creature who sits up
in a tower, brushing her hair and waiting for some knight to rescue her. I must inform the queen of this
agreement, he said. You are welcome to come meet her, if you can find it in yourself to bend a knee.
It would never do to offend Her Grace before he even opened his mouth.
May I laugh when I kneel?
You may not. This is no game. A river of blood runs between our peoples, old and deep and
red. Stannis Baratheon is one of the few who favors admitting wildlings to the realm. I need his queens
support for what Ive done.
Vals playful smile died. You have my word, Lord Snow. I will be a proper wildling princess for
your queen.

She is not my queen, he might have said. If truth be told, the day of her departure cannot come
too fast for me. And if the gods are good, she will take Melisandre with her.
They rode the rest of the way in silence, Ghost loping at their heels. Mormonts raven followed
them as far as the gate, then flapped upward as the rest of them dismounted. Horse went ahead with a
brand to light the way through the icy tunnel.
A small crowd of black brothers was waiting by the gate when Jon and his companions emerged
south of the Wall. Ulmer of the Kingswood was amongst them, and it was the old archer who came
forward to speak for the rest. If it please mlord, the lads were wondering. Will it be peace, mlord? Or
blood and iron?
Peace, Jon Snow replied. Three days hence, Tormund Giantsbane will lead his people through
the Wall. As friends, not foes. Some may even swell our ranks, as brothers. It will be for us to make them
welcome. Now back to your duties. Jon handed the reins of his horse to Satin. I must see Queen
Selyse. Her Grace would take it as a slight if he did not come to her at once. Afterward I will have
letters to write. Bring parchment, quills, and a pot of maesters black to my chambers. Then summon
Marsh, Yarwyck, Septon Cellador, Clydas. Cellador would be half-drunk, and Clydas was a poor
substitute for a real maester, but they were what he had. Till Sam returns. The northmen too. Flint and
Norrey. Leathers, you should be there as well.
Hobb is baking onion pies, said Satin. Shall I request that they all join you for supper?
Jon considered. No. Ask them to join me atop the Wall at sunset. He turned to Val. My lady.
With me, if you please.
The crow commands, the captive must obey. Her tone was playful. This queen of yours must
be fierce if the legs of grown men give out beneath them when they meet her. Should I have dressed in
mail instead of wool and fur? These clothes were given to me by Dalla, I would sooner not get
bloodstains all over them.
If words drew blood, you might have cause to fear. I think your clothes are safe enough, my
lady.
They made their way toward the Kings Tower, along fresh-shoveled pathways between mounds
of dirty snow. I have heard it said that your queen has a great dark beard.
Jon knew he should not smile, but he did. Only a mustache. Very wispy. You can count the
hairs.
How disappointing.
For all her talk about wanting to be mistress of her seat, Selyse Baratheon seemed in no great
haste to abandon the comforts of Castle Black for the shadows of the Nightfort. She kept guards, of
coursefour men posted at the door, two outside on the steps, two inside by the brazier. Commanding

them was Ser Patrek of Kings Mountain, clad in his knightly raiment of white and blue and silver, his
cloak a spatter of five-pointed stars. When presented to Val, the knight sank to one knee to kiss her
glove. You are even lovelier than I was told, princess, he declared. The queen has told me much and
more of your beauty.
How odd, when she has never seen me. Val patted Ser Patrek on the head. Up with you now,
ser kneeler. Up, up. She sounded as if she were talking to a dog.
It was all that Jon could do not to laugh. Stone-faced, he told the knight that they required
audience with the queen. Ser Patrek sent one of the men-at-arms scrambling up the steps to inquire as
to whether Her Grace would receive them. The wolf stays here, though, Ser Patrek insisted.
Jon had expected that. The direwolf made Queen Selyse anxious, almost as much as Wun Weg
Wun Dar Wun. Ghost, stay.
They found Her Grace sewing by the fire, whilst her fool danced about to music only he could
hear, the cowbells on his antlers clanging. The crow, the crow, Patchface cried when he saw Jon.
Under the sea the crows are white as snow, I know, I know, oh, oh, oh. Princess Shireen was curled up
in a window seat, her hood drawn up to hide the worst of the greyscale that had disfigured her face.
There was no sign of Lady Melisandre. For that much Jon was grateful. Soon or late he would
need to face the red priestess, but he would sooner it was not in the queens presence. Your Grace. He
took a knee. Val did likewise.
Queen Selyse set aside her sewing. You may rise.
If it please Your Grace, may I present the Lady Val? Her sister Dalla was
mother to that squalling babe who keeps us awake at night. I know who she is, Lord Snow.
The queen sniffed. You are fortunate that she returned to us before the king my husband, else it might
have gone badly for you. Very badly indeed.
Are you the wildling princess? Shireen asked Val. Some call me that, said Val. My sister was
wife to Mance Rayder, the King-Beyond-the-Wall. She died giving him a son.
Im a princess too, Shireen announced, but I never had a sister. I used to have a cousin once,
before he sailed away. He was just a bastard, but I liked him.
Honestly, Shireen, her mother said. I am sure the lord commander did not come to hear
about Roberts by-blows. Patchface, be a good fool and take the princess to her room.
The bells on his hat rang. Away, away, the fool sang. Come with me beneath the sea, away,
away, away. He took the little princess by one hand and drew her from the room, skipping.
Jon said, Your Grace, the leader of the free folk has agreed to my terms.

Queen Selyse gave the tiniest of nods. It was ever my lord husbands wish to grant sanctuary to
these savage peoples. So long as they keep the kings peace and the kings laws, they are welcome in our
realm. She pursed her lips. I am told they have more giants with them.
Val answered. Almost two hundred of them, Your Grace. And more than eighty mammoths.
The queen shuddered. Dreadful creatures. Jon could not tell if she was speaking of the
mammoths or the giants. Though such beasts might be useful to my lord husband in his battles.
That may be, Your Grace, Jon said, but the mammoths are too big to pass through our gate.
Cannot the gate be widened?
That  that would be unwise, I think.
Selyse sniffed. If you say so. No doubt you know about such things. Where do you mean to
settle these wildlings? Surely Moles Town is not large enough to contain  how many are they?
Four thousand, Your Grace. They will help us garrison our abandoned castles, the better to
defend the Wall.
I had been given to understand that those castles were ruins. Dismal places, bleak and cold,
hardly more than heaps of rubble. At Eastwatch we heard talk of rats and spiders.
The cold will have killed the spiders by now, thought Jon, and the rats may be a useful source of
meat come winter. All true, Your Grace  but even ruins offer some shelter. And the Wall will stand
between them and the Others.
I see you have considered all this carefully, Lord Snow. I am sure King Stannis will be pleased
when he returns triumphant from his battle.
Assuming he returns at all. Of course, the queen went on, the wildlings must first
acknowledge Stannis as their king and Rhllor as their god.
And here we are, face-to-face in the narrow passage. Your Grace, forgive me. Those were not
the terms that we agreed to.
The queens face hardened. A grievous oversight. What faint traces of warmth her voice had
held vanished all at once.
Free folk do not kneel, Val told her. Then they must be knelt, the queen declared. Do that,
Your Grace, and we will rise again at the first chance, Val promised. Rise with blades in hand.
The queens lips tightened, and her chin gave a small quiver. You are insolent. I suppose that is
only to be expected of a wildling. We must find you a husband who can teach you courtesy. The queen
turned her glare on Jon. I do not approve, Lord Commander. Nor will my lord husband. I cannot prevent

you from opening your gate, as we both know full well, but I promise you that you shall answer for it
when the king returns from battle. Mayhaps you might want to reconsider.
Your Grace. Jon knelt again. This time Val did not join him. I am sorry my actions have
displeased you. I did as I thought best. Do I have your leave to go?
You do. At once.
Once outside and well away from the queens men, Val gave vent to her wroth. You lied about
her beard. That one has more hair on her chin than I have between my legs. And the daughter  her
face 
Greyscale.
The grey death is what we call it.
It is not always mortal in children.
North of the Wall it is. Hemlock is a sure cure, but a pillow or a blade will work as well. If I had
given birth to that poor child, I would have given her the gift of mercy long ago.
This was a Val that Jon had never seen before. Princess Shireen is the queens only child.
I pity both of them. The child is not clean.
If Stannis wins his war, Shireen will stand as heir to the Iron Throne.
Then I pity your Seven Kingdoms.
The maesters say greyscale is not
The maesters may believe what they wish. Ask a woods witch if you would know the truth. The
grey death sleeps, only to wake again. The child is not clean!
She seems a sweet girl. You cannot know
I can. You know nothing, Jon Snow. Val seized his arm. I want the monster out of there. Him
and his wet nurses. You cannot leave them in that same tower as the dead girl.
Jon shook her hand away. She is not dead. She is. Her mother cannot see it. Nor you, it
seems. Yet death is there. She walked away from him, stopped, turned back. I brought you Tormund
Giantsbane. Bring me my monster.
If I can, I will.
Do. You owe me a debt, Jon Snow.

Jon watched her stride away. She is wrong. She must be wrong. Greyscale is not so deadly as she
claims, not in children.
Ghost was gone again. The sun was low in the west. A cup of hot spiced wine would serve me
well just now. Two cups would serve me even better. But that would have to wait. He had foes to face.
Foes of the worst sort: brothers.
He found Leathers waiting for him by the winch cage. The two of them rode up together. The
higher they went, the stronger the wind. Fifty feet up, the heavy cage began to sway with every gust.
From time to time it scraped against the Wall, starting small crystalline showers of ice that sparkled in
the sunlight as they fell. They rose above the tallest towers of the castle. At four hundred feet the wind
had teeth, and tore at his black cloak so it slapped noisily at the iron bars. At seven hundred it cut right
through him. The Wall is mine, Jon reminded himself as the winchmen were swinging in the cage, for
two more days, at least.
Jon hopped down onto the ice, thanked the men on the winch, and nodded to the spearmen
standing sentry. Both wore woolen hoods pulled down over their heads, so nothing could be seen of
their faces but their eyes, but he knew Ty by the tangled rope of greasy black hair falling down his back
and Owen by the sausage stuffed into the scabbard at his hip. He might have known them anyway, just
by the way they stood. A good lord must know his men, his father had once told him and Robb, back at
Winterfell.
Jon walked to the edge of the Wall and gazed down upon the killing ground where Mance
Rayders host had died. He wondered where Mance was now. Did he ever find you, little sister? Or were
you just a ploy he used so I would set him free?
It had been so long since he had last seen Arya. What would she look like now? Would he even
know her? Arya Underfoot. Her face was always dirty. Would she still have that little sword hed had
Mikken forge for her? Stick them with the pointy end, hed told her. Wisdom for her wedding night if half
of what he heard of Ramsay Snow was true. Bring her home, Mance. I saved your son from Melisandre,
and now I am about to save four thousand of your free folk. You owe me this one little girl.
In the haunted forest to the north, the shadows of the afternoon crept through the trees. The
western sky was a blaze of red, but to the east the first stars were peeking out. Jon Snow flexed the
fingers of his sword hand, remembering all hed lost. Sam, you sweet fat fool, you played me a cruel jape
when you made me lord commander. A lord commander has no friends.
Lord Snow? said Leathers. The cage is coming up.
I hear it. Jon moved back from the edge.
First to make the ascent were the clan chiefs Flint and Norrey, clad in fur and iron. The Norrey
looked like some old foxwrinkled and slight of build, but sly-eyed and spry. Torghen Flint was half a
head shorter but must weigh twice as mucha stout gruff man with gnarled, red-knuckled hands as big

as hams, leaning heavily on a blackthorn cane as he limped across the ice. Bowen Marsh came next,
bundled up in a bearskin. After him Othell Yarwyck. Then Septon Cellador, half in his cups.
Walk with me, Jon told them. They walked west along the Wall, down gravel-strewn paths
toward the setting sun. When they had come fifty yards from the warming shed, he said, You know
why Ive summoned you. Three days hence at dawn the gate will open, to allow Tormund and his people
through the Wall. There is much we need to do in preparation.
Silence greeted his pronouncement. Then Othell Yarwyck said, Lord Commander, there are
thousands of
scrawny wildlings, bone weary, hungry, far from home. Jon pointed at the lights of their
campfires. There they are. Four thousand, Tormund claims.
Three thousand, I make them, by the fires. Bowen Marsh lived for counts and measures.
More than twice that number at Hardhome with the woods witch, we are told. And Ser Denys writes of
great camps in the mountains beyond the Shadow Tower 
Jon did not deny it. Tormund says the Weeper means to try the Bridge of Skulls again.
The Old Pomegranate touched his scar. He had gotten it defending the Bridge of Skulls the last
time the Weeping Man had tried to cut his way across the Gorge. Surely the lord commander cannot
mean to allow that  that demon through as well?
Not gladly. Jon had not forgotten the heads the Weeping Man had left him, with bloody holes
where their eyes had been. Black Jack Bulwer, Hairy Hal, Garth Greyfeather. I cannot avenge them, but I
will not forget their names. But yes, my lord, him as well. We cannot pick and choose amongst the free
folk, saying this one may pass, this one may not. Peace means peace for all.
The Norrey hawked and spat. As well make peace with wolves and carrion crows.
Its peaceful in my dungeons, grumbled Old Flint. Give the Weeping Man to me.
How many rangers has the Weeper killed? asked Othell Yarwyck. How many women has he
raped or killed or stolen?
Three of mine own ilk, said Old Flint. And he blinds the girls he does not take.
When a man takes the black, his crimes are forgiven, Jon reminded them. If we want the free
folk to fight beside us, we must pardon their past crimes as we would for our own.
The Weeper will not say the words, insisted Yarwyck. He will not wear the cloak. Even other
raiders do not trust him.
You need not trust a man to use him. Else how could I make use of all of you? We need the
Weeper, and others like him. Who knows the wild better than a wildling? Who knows our foes better
than a man who has fought them?

All the Weeper knows is rape and murder, said Yarwyck.
Once past the Wall, the wildlings will have thrice our numbers, said Bowen Marsh. And that is
only Tormunds band. Add the Weepers men and those at Hardhome, and they will have the strength to
end the Nights Watch in a single night.
Numbers alone do not win a war. You have not seen them. Half of them are dead on their
feet.
I would sooner have them dead in the ground, said Yarwyck. If it please my lord.
It does not please me. Jons voice was as cold as the wind snapping at their cloaks. There are
children in that camp, hundreds of them, thousands. Women as well.
Spearwives.
Some. Along with mothers and grandmothers, widows and maids  would you condemn them
all to die, my lord?
Brothers should not squabble, Septon Cellador said. Let us kneel and pray to the Crone to
light our way to wisdom.
Lord Snow, said The Norrey, where do you mean to put these wild-lings o yours? Not on my
lands, I hope.
Aye, declared Old Flint. You want them in the Gift, thats your folly, but see they dont
wander off or Ill send you back their heads. Winter is nigh, I want no more mouths to feed.
The wildlings will remain upon the Wall, Jon assured them. Most will be housed in one of our
abandoned castles. The Watch now had garrisons at Icemark, Long Barrow, Sable Hall, Greyguard, and
Deep Lake, all badly undermanned, but ten castles still stood empty and abandoned. Men with wives
and children, all orphan girls and any orphan boys below the age of ten, old women, widowed mothers,
any woman who does not care to fight. The spearwives well send to Long Barrow to join their sisters,
single men to the other forts weve reopened. Those who take the black will remain here, or be posted
to Eastwatch or the Shadow Tower. Tormund will take Oakenshield as his seat, to keep him close at
hand.
Bowen Marsh sighed. If they do not slay us with their swords, they will do so with their mouths.
Pray, how does the lord commander propose to feed Tormund and his thousands?
Jon had anticipated that question. Through Eastwatch. We will bring in food by ship, as much
as might be required. From the riverlands and the stormlands and the Vale of Arryn, from Dorne and the
Reach, across the narrow sea from the Free Cities.
And this food will be paid for  how, if I may ask?

With gold, from the Iron Bank of Braavos, Jon might have replied. Instead he said, I have agreed
that the free folk may keep their furs and pelts. They will need those for warmth when winter comes. All
other wealth they must surrender. Gold and silver, amber, gemstones, carvings, anything of value. We
will ship it all across the narrow sea to be sold in the Free Cities.
All the wealth o the wildlings, said The Norrey. That should buy you a bushel o barleycorn.
Two bushels, might be.
Lord Commander, why not demand that the wildlings give up their arms as well? asked Clydas.
Leathers laughed at that. You want the free folk to fight beside you against the common foe.
How are we to do that without arms? Would you have us throw snowballs at the wights? Or will you
give us sticks to hit them with?
The arms most wildlings carry are little more than sticks, thought Jon. Wooden clubs, stone axes,
mauls, spears with fire-hardened points, knives of bone and stone and dragonglass, wicker shields, bone
armor, boiled leather. The Thenns worked bronze, and raiders like the Weeper carried stolen steel and
iron swords looted off some corpse  but even those were oft of ancient vintage, dinted from years of
hard use and spotted with rust.
Tormund Giantsbane will never willingly disarm his people, Jon said. He is not the Weeping
Man, but he is no craven either. If I had asked that of him, it would have come to blood.
The Norrey fingered his beard. You may put your wildlings in these ruined forts, Lord Snow, but
how will you make them stay? What is there to stop them moving south to fairer, warmer lands?
Our lands, said Old Flint. Tormund has given me his oath. He will serve with us until the
spring. The Weeper and their other captains will swear the same or we will not let them pass.
Old Flint shook his head. They will betray us.
The Weepers word is worthless, said Othell Yarwyck. These are godless savages, said
Septon Cellador. Even in the south the treachery of wildlings is renowned.
Leathers crossed his arms. That battle down below? I was on tother side, remember? Now I
wear your blacks and train your boys to kill. Some might call me turncloak. Might be so  but I am no
more savage than you crows. We have gods too. The same gods they keep in Winterfell.
The gods of the North, since before this Wall was raised, said Jon. Those are the gods that
Tormund swore by. He will keep his word. I know him, as I knew Mance Rayder. I marched with them for
a time, you may recall.
I had not forgotten, said the Lord Steward.
No, thought Jon, I did not think you had. Mance Rayder swore an oath as well, Marsh went on.
He vowed to wear no crowns, take no wife, father no sons. Then he turned his cloak, did all those

things, and led a fearsome host against the realm. It is the remnants of that host that waits beyond the
Wall.
Broken remnants.
A broken sword can be reforged. A broken sword can kill.
The free folk have neither laws nor lords, Jon said, but they love their children. Will you admit
that much?
It is not their children who concern us. We fear the fathers, not the sons.
As do I. So I insisted upon hostages. I am not the trusting fool you take me for  nor am I half
wildling, no matter what you believe. One hundred boys between the ages of eight and sixteen. A son
from each of their chiefs and captains, the rest chosen by lot. The boys will serve as pages and squires,
freeing our own men for other duties. Some may choose to take the black one day. Queerer things have
happened. The rest will stand hostage for the loyalty of their sires.
The northmen glanced at one another. Hostages, mused The Norrey. Tormund has agreed to
this?
It was that, or watch his people die. My blood price, he called it, said Jon Snow, but he will
pay.
Aye, and why not? Old Flint stomped his cane against the ice. Wards, we always called them,
when Winterfell demanded boys of us, but they were hostages, and none the worse for it.
None but them whose sires displeased the Kings o Winter, said The Norrey. Those came
home shorter by a head. So you tell me, boy  if these wildling friends o yours prove false, do you have
the belly to do what needs be done?
Ask Janos Slynt. Tormund Giantsbane knows better than to try me. I may seem a green boy in
your eyes, Lord Norrey, but I am still a son of Eddard Stark.
Yet even that did not appease his Lord Steward. You say these boys will serve as squires. Surely
the lord commander does not mean they will be trained at arms?
Jons anger flared. No, my lord, I mean to set them to sewing lacy smallclothes. Of course they
shall be trained at arms. They shall also churn butter, hew firewood, muck stables, empty chamber pots,
and run messages  and in between they will be drilled with spear and sword and longbow.
Marsh flushed a deeper shade of red. The lord commander must pardon my bluntness, but I
have no softer way to say this. What you propose is nothing less than treason. For eight thousand years
the men of the Nights Watch have stood upon the Wall and fought these wildlings. Now you mean to
let them pass, to shelter them in our castles, to feed them and clothe them and teach them how to fight.
Lord Snow, must I remind you? You swore an oath.

I know what I swore. Jon said the words. I am the sword in the darkness. I am the watcher on
the walls. I am the fire that burns against the cold, the light that brings the dawn, the horn that wakes
the sleepers, the shield that guards the realms of men. Were those the same words you said when you
took your vows?
They were. As the lord commander knows.
Are you certain that I have not forgotten some? The ones about the king and his laws, and how
we must defend every foot of his land and cling to each ruined castle? How does that part go? Jon
waited for an answer. None came. I am the shield that guards the realms of men. Those are the words.
So tell me, my lord what are these wildlings, if not men?
Bowen Marsh opened his mouth. No words came out. A flush crept up his neck.
Jon Snow turned away. The last light of the sun had begun to fade. He watched the cracks along
the Wall go from red to grey to black, from streaks of fire to rivers of black ice. Down below, Lady
Melisandre would be lighting her nightfire and chanting, Lord of Light, defend us, for the night is dark
and full of terrors.
Winter is coming, Jon said at last, breaking the awkward silence, and with it the white
walkers. The Wall is where we stop them. The Wall was made to stop them  but the Wall must be
manned. This discussion is at an end. We have much to do before the gate is opened. Tormund and his
people will need to be fed and clothed and housed. Some are sick and will need nursing. Those will fall
to you, Clydas. Save as many as you can.
Clydas blinked his dim pink eyes. I will do my best, Jon. My lord, I mean.
We will need every cart and wagon made ready to transport the free folk to their new homes.
Othell, you shall see to that.
Yarwyck grimaced. Aye, Lord Commander.
Lord Bowen, you shall collect the tolls. The gold and silver, the amber, the torques and
armbands and necklaces. Sort it all, count it, see that it reaches Eastwatch safely.
Yes, Lord Snow, said Bowen Marsh.
And Jon thought, Ice, she said, and daggers in the dark. Blood frozen red and hard, and naked
steel. His sword hand flexed. The wind was rising.
CERSEI
Each night seemed colder than the last.

The cell had neither fireplace nor brazier. The only window was too high to allow her a view and
too small to squeeze through, but more than large enough to let in the chill. Cersei had torn up the first
shift they gave her, demanding the return of her own clothes, but that only left her naked and shivering.
When they brought her another shift, she pulled it down over her head and thanked them, choking
upon the words.
The window let in sounds as well. That was the only way the queen had to know what might be
happening in the city. The septas who brought her food would tell her nothing.
She hated that. Jaime would be coming for her, but how would she know when he arrived?
Cersei only hoped he was not so foolish as to go racing ahead of his army. He would need every sword
to deal with the ragged horde of Poor Fellows surrounding the Great Sept. She asked about her twin
often, but her gaolers gave no answer. She asked about Ser Loras too. At last report the Knight of
Flowers had been dying on Dragonstone of wounds received whilst taking the castle. Let him die, Cersei
thought, and let him be quick about it. The boys death would mean an empty place on the Kingsguard,
and that might be her salvation. But the septas were as close-mouthed about Loras Tyrell as they were
about Jaime.
Lord Qyburn had been her last and only visitor. Her world had a population of four: herself and
her three gaolers, pious and unyielding. Septa Unella was big-boned and mannish, with callused hands
and homely, scowling features. Septa Moelle had stiff white hair and small mean eyes perpetually
crinkled in suspicion, peering out of a wrinkled face as sharp as the blade of an axe. Septa Scolera was
thick-waisted and short, with heavy breasts, olive skin, and a sour smell to her, like milk on the verge of
going bad. They brought her food and water, emptied her chamber pot, and took away her shift for
washing every few days, leaving her to huddle naked under her blanket until it was returned to her.
Sometimes Scolera would read to her from The Seven-Pointed Star or The Book of Holy Prayer, but
elsewise none of them would speak with her or answer any of her questions.
She hated and despised all three of them, almost as much as she hated and despised the men
who had betrayed her.
False friends, treacherous servants, men who had professed undying love, even her own blood
 all of them had deserted her in her hour of need. Osney Kettleblack, that weakling, had broken
beneath the lash, filling the High Sparrows ears with secrets he should have taken to his grave. His
brothers, scum of the streets whom she had raised high, did no more than sit upon their hands. Aurane
Waters, her admiral, had fled to sea with the dromonds she had built for him. Orton Merryweather had
gone running back to Longtable, taking his wife, Taena, who had been the queens one true friend in
these terrible times. Harys Swyft and Grand Maester Pycelle had abandoned her to captivity and offered
the realm to the very men who had conspired against her. Meryn Trant and Boros Blount, the kings
sworn protectors, were nowhere to be found. Even her cousin Lancel, who once had claimed to love her,
was one of her accusers. Her uncle had refused to help her rule when she would have made him the
Kings Hand.
And Jaime 

No, that she could not believe, would not believe. Jaime would be here once he knew of her
plight. Come at once, she had written to him. Help me. Save me. I need you now as I have never
needed you before. I love you. I love you. I love you. Come at once. Qyburn had sworn that he would see
that her letter reached her twin, off in the riverlands with his army. Qyburn had never returned,
however. For all she knew, he might be dead, his head impaled upon a spike above the city Keeps gates.
Or perhaps he was languishing in one of the black cells beneath the Red Keep, her letter still unsent. The
queen had asked after him a hundred times, but her captors would not speak of him. All she knew for
certain was that Jaime had not come.
Not yet, she told herself. But soon. And once he comes the High Sparrow and his bitches will sing
a different song.
She hated feeling helpless.
She had threatened, but her threats had been received with stony faces and deaf ears. She had
commanded, but her commands had been ignored. She had invoked the Mothers mercy, appealing to
the natural sympathy of one woman for another, but the three shriveled septas must have put their
womanhood aside when they spoke their vows. She had tried charm, speaking to them gently, accepting
each new outrage meekly. They were not swayed. She had offered them rewards, promised leniency,
honors, gold, positions at court. They treated her promises as they did her threats.
And she had prayed. Oh, how she had prayed. Prayer was what they wanted, so she served it to
them, served it on her knees as if she were some common trollop of the streets and not a daughter of
the Rock. She had prayed for relief, for deliverance, for Jaime. Loudly she asked the gods to defend her
in her innocence; silently she prayed for her accusers to suffer sudden, painful deaths. She prayed until
her knees were raw and bloody, until her tongue felt so thick and heavy that she was like to choke on it.
All the prayers they had taught her as a girl came back to Cersei in her cell, and she made up new ones
as needed, calling on the Mother and the Maiden, on the Father and the Warrior, on the Crone and the
Smith. She had even prayed to the Stranger. Any god in a storm. The Seven proved as deaf as their
earthly servants. Cersei gave them all the words that she had in her, gave them everything but tears.
That they will never have, she told herself.
She hated feeling weak.
If the gods had given her the strength they gave Jaime and that swaggering oaf Robert, she
could have made her own escape. Oh, for a sword and the skill to wield it. She had a warriors heart, but
the gods in their blind malice had given her the feeble body of a woman. The queen had tried to fight
them early on, but the septas had overwhelmed her. There were too many of them, and they were
stronger than they looked. Ugly old women, every one of them, but all that praying and scrubbing and
beating novices with sticks had left them tough as roots.
And they would not let her rest. Night or day, whenever the queen closed her eyes to sleep, one
of her captors would appear to wake her and demand that she confess her sins. She stood accused of
adultery, fornication, high treason, even murder, for Osney Kettleblack had confessed to smothering the

last High Septon at her command. I am come to hear you tell of all your murders and fornications,
Septa Unella would growl when she shook the queen awake. Septa Moelle would tell her that it was her
sins that kept her sleepless. Only the innocent know the peace of untroubled sleep. Confess your sins,
and you will sleep like a newborn babe.
Wake and sleep and wake again, every night was broken into pieces by the rough hands of her
tormentors, and every night was colder and crueler than the night before. The hour of the owl, the hour
of the wolf, the hour of the nightingale, moonrise and moonset, dusk and dawn, they staggered past like
drunkards. What hour was it? What day was it? Where was she? Was this a dream, or had she woken?
The little shards of sleep that they allowed her turned into razors, slicing at her wits. Each day found her
duller than the day before, exhausted and feverish. She had lost all sense of how long she had been
imprisoned in this cell, high up in one of the seven towers of the Great Sept of Baelor. I will grow old and
die here, she thought, despairing.
Cersei could not allow that to happen. Her son had need of her. The realm had need of her. She
had to free herself, no matter what the risk. Her world had shrunk to a cell six feet square, a chamber
pot, a lumpy pallet, and a brown wool blanket thin as hope that made her skin itch, but she was still Lord
Tywins heir, a daughter of the Rock.
Exhausted by her lack of sleep, shivering from the cold that stole into the tower cell each night,
feverish and famished by turns, Cersei came at last to know she must confess.
That night, when Septa Unella came to wrench her out of sleep, she found the queen waiting on
her knees. I have sinned, said Cersei. Her tongue was thick in her mouth, her lips raw and chapped. I
have sinned most grievously. I see that now. How could I have been so blind for so long? The Crone
came to me with her lamp raised high, and by its holy light I saw the road that I must walk. I want to be
clean again. I want only absolution. Please, good septa, I beg of you, take me to the High Septon so that I
might confess my crimes and fornications.
I will tell him, Your Grace, said Septa Unella. His High Holiness will be most pleased. Only
through confession and true repentance may our immortal souls be saved.
And for the rest of that long night they let her sleep. Hours and hours of blessed sleep. The owl
and the wolf and the nightingale slipped by for once with their passage unseen and unremarked, whilst
Cersei dreamed a long sweet dream where Jaime was her husband and their son was still alive.
Come morning, the queen felt almost like herself again. When her captors came for her, she
made pious noises at them again and told them how determined she was to confess her sins and be
forgiven for all that she had done.
We rejoice to hear it, said Septa Moelle. It will be a great weight off your soul, said Septa
Scolera. You will feel much better afterward, Your Grace.
Your Grace. Those two simple words thrilled her. During her long captivity, her gaolers had not
oft bothered with even that simple courtesy.

His High Holiness awaits, said Septa Unella.
Cersei lowered her head, humble and obedient. Might I be allowed to bathe first? I am in no fit
state to attend him.
You may wash later if His High Holiness allows, said Septa Unella. It is the cleanliness of your
immortal soul that should concern you now, not such vanities of the flesh.
The three septas led her down the tower stairs, with Septa Unella going before her and Septa
Moelle and Septa Scolera at her heels, as if they were afraid that she might try to flee. It has been so
long since I have had a visitor, Cersei murmured in a quiet voice as they made their descent. Is the king
well? I ask only as a mother, fearful for her child.
His Grace is in good health, said Septa Scolera, and well protected, day and night. The queen
is with him, always.
I am the queen! She swallowed, smiled, and said, That is good to know. Tommen loves her so. I
never believed those terrible things that were being said of her. Had Margaery Tyrell somehow
wriggled free of the accusations of fornication, adultery, and high treason? Was there a trial?
Soon, said Septa Scolera, but her brother Hush. Septa Unella turned to glare back over
her shoulder at Scolera. You chatter too much, you foolish old woman. It is not for us to speak of such
things.
Scolera lowered her head. Pray forgive me.
They made the rest of the descent in silence.
The High Sparrow received her in his sanctum, an austere seven-sided chamber where crudely
carved faces of the Seven stared out from the stone walls with expressions almost as sour and
disapproving as His High Holiness himself. When she entered, he was seated behind a rough-hewn table,
writing. The High Septon had not changed since the last time she had been in his presence, the day he
had her seized and imprisoned. He was still a scrawny grey-haired man with a lean, hard, half-starved
look, his face sharp-featured, lined, his eyes suspicious. In place of the rich robes of his predecessors, he
wore a shapeless tunic of undyed wool that fell down to his ankles. Your Grace, he said, by way of
greeting. I understand that you wish to make confession.
Cersei dropped to her knees. I do, High Holiness. The Crone came to me as I slept with her lamp
held high
To be sure. Unella, you will stay and make a record of Her Graces words. Scolera, Moelle, you
have my leave to go. He pressed the fingers of his hands together, the same gesture she had seen her
father use a thousand times.
Septa Unella took a seat behind her, spread out a parchment, dipped a quill in maesters ink.
Cersei felt a stab of fright. Once I have confessed, will I be permitted to

Your Grace shall be dealt with according to your sins.
This man is implacable, she realized once again. She gathered herself for a moment. Mother
have mercy on me, then. I have lain with men outside the bonds of marriage. I confess it.
Who? The High Septons eyes were fixed on hers.
Cersei could hear Unella writing behind her. Her quill made a faint, soft scratching sound.
Lancel Lannister, my cousin. And Osney Kettleblack. Both men had confessed to bedding her, it would
do her no good to deny it. His brothers too. Both of them. She had no way of knowing what Osfryd
and Osmund might say. Safer to confess too much than too little. It does not excuse my sin, High
Holiness, but I was lonely and afraid. The gods took King Robert from me, my love and my protector. I
was alone, surrounded by schemers, false friends, and traitors who were conspiring at the death of my
children. I did not know who to trust, so I  I used the only means that I had to bind the Kettleblacks to
me.
By which you mean your female parts?
My flesh. She pressed a hand to her face, shuddering. When she lowered it again, her eyes
were wet with tears. Yes. May the Maid forgive me. It was for my children, though, for the realm. I took
no pleasure in it. The Kettleblacks  they are hard men, and cruel, and they used me roughly, but what
else was I to do? Tommen needed men around him I could trust.
His Grace was protected by the Kingsguard.
The Kingsguard stood by useless as his brother Joffrey died, murdered at his own wedding
feast. I watched one son die, I could not bear to lose another. I have sinned, I have committed wanton
fornication, but I did it for Tommen. Forgive me, High Holiness, but I would open my legs for every man
in Kings Landing if that was what I had to do to keep my children safe.
Forgiveness comes only from the gods. What of Ser Lancel, who was your cousin and your lord
husbands squire? Did you take him into your bed to win his loyalty as well?
Lancel. Cersei hesitated. Careful, she told herself, Lancel will have told him everything. Lancel
loved me. He was half a boy, but I never doubted his devotion to me or my son.
And yet you still corrupted him.
I was lonely. She choked back a sob. I had lost my husband, my son, my lord father. I was
regent, but a queen is still a woman, and women are weak vessels, easily tempted  Your High Holiness
knows the truth of that. Even holy septas have been known to sin. I took comfort with Lancel. He was
kind and gentle and I needed someone. It was wrong, I know, but I had no one else  a woman needs to
be loved, she needs a man beside her, she  she  She began to sob uncontrollably.
The High Septon made no move to comfort her. He sat there with his hard eyes fixed on her,
watching her weep, as stony as the statues of the Seven in the sept above. Long moments passed, but

finally her tears were all dried up. By then her eyes were red and raw from crying, and she felt as if she
might faint.
The High Sparrow was not done with her, however. These are common sins, he said. The
wickedness of widows is well-known, and all women are wantons at heart, given to using their wiles and
their beauty to work their wills on men. There is no treason here, so long as you did not stray from your
marriage bed whilst His Grace King Robert was still alive.
Never, she whispered, shivering. Never, I swear it.
He paid that no mind. There are other charges laid against Your Grace, crimes far more
grievous than simple fornications. You admit Ser Osney Kettleblack was your lover, and Ser Osney insists
that he smothered my predecessor at your behest. He further insists that he bore false witness against
Queen Margaery and her cousins, telling tales of fornications, adultery, and high treason, again at your
behest.
No, said Cersei. It is not true. I love Margaery as I would a daughter. And the other  I
complained of the High Septon, I admit it. He was Tyrions creature, weak and corrupt, a stain upon our
Holy Faith. Your High Holiness knows that as well as I. It may be that Osney thought that his death would
please me. If so, I bear some part of the blame  but murder? No. Of that I am innocent. Take me to the
sept and I will stand before the Fathers judgment seat and swear the truth of that.
In time, said the High Septon. You also stand accused of conspiring at the murder of your
own lord husband, our late beloved King Robert, First of His Name.
Lancel, Cersei thought. Robert was killed by a boar. Do they say I am a skinchanger now? A
warg? Am I accused of killing Joffrey too, my own sweet son, my firstborn?
No. Just your husband. Do you deny it?
I deny it. I do. Before gods and men, I deny it.
He nodded. Last of all, and worst of all, there are some who say your children were not
fathered by King Robert, that they are bastards born of incest and adultery.
Stannis says that, Cersei said at once. A lie, a lie, a palpable lie. Stannis wants the Iron Throne
for himself, but his brothers children stand in his way, so he must needs claim that they are not his
brothers. That filthy letter  there is no shred of truth to it. I deny it.
The High Septon placed both hands flat upon the table and pushed himself to his feet. Good.
Lord Stannis has turned from the truth of the Seven to worship a red demon, and his false faith has no
place in these Seven Kingdoms.
That was almost reassuring. Cersei nodded. Even so, His High Holiness went on, these are
terrible charges, and the realm must know the truth of them. If Your Grace has told it true, no doubt a
trial will prove your innocence.

A trial, still. I have confessed
to certain sins, aye. Others you deny. Your trial will separate the truths from the falsehoods. I
shall ask the Seven to forgive the sins you have confessed and pray that you be found innocent of these
other accusations.
Cersei rose slowly from her knees. I bow to the wisdom of Your High Holiness, she said, but if
I might beg for just one drop of the Mothers mercy, I  it has been so long since I last saw my son,
please 
The old mans eyes were chips of flint. It would not be fitting to allow you near the king until
you have been cleansed of all your wickedness. You have taken the first step on your path back to
righteousness, however, and in light of that I shall permit you other visitors. One each day.
The queen began to weep again. This time the tears were true. You are too kind. Thank you.
The Mother is merciful. It is her that you should thank.
Moelle and Scolera were waiting to lead her back up to her tower cell. Unella followed close
behind them. We have all been praying for Your Grace, Septa Moelle said as they were climbing.
Yes, Septa Scolera echoed, and you must feel so much lighter now, clean and innocent as a maid on
the morning of her wedding.
I fucked Jaime on the morning of my wedding, the queen recalled. I do, she said, I feel reborn,
as if a festering boil has been lanced and now at last I can begin to heal. I could almost fly. She
imagined how sweet it would be to slam an elbow into Septa Scoleras face and send her careening
down the spiral steps. If the gods were good, the wrinkled old cunt might crash into Septa Unella and
take her down with her.
It is good to see you smiling again, Scolera said. His High Holiness said I might have visitors?
He did, said Septa Unella. If Your Grace will tell us whom you wish to see, we will send word
to them.
Jaime, I need Jaime. But if her twin was in the city, why had he not come to her? It might be
wiser to wait on Jaime until she had a better notion of what was happening beyond the walls of the
Great Sept of Baelor. My uncle, she said. Ser Kevan Lannister, my fathers brother. Is he in the city?
He is, said Septa Unella. The Lord Regent has taken up residence in the Red Keep. We will
send for him at once.
Thank you, said Cersei, thinking, Lord Regent, is it? She could not pretend to be surprised.
A humble and a contrite heart proved to have benefits over and beyond cleansing the soul of
sin. That night the queen was moved to a larger cell two floors down, with a window she could actually
look out of and warm, soft blankets for her bed. And when time came for supper, instead of stale bread

and oaten porridge, she was served a roast capon, a bowl of crisp greens sprinkled with crushed
walnuts, and a mound of mashed neeps aswim in butter. That night she crawled into her bed with a full
stomach for the first time since she was taken, and slept through the black watches of the night
undisturbed.
The next morning, with the dawn, there came her uncle.
Cersei was still at her breakfast when the door swung open and Ser Kevan Lannister stepped
through. Leave us, he told her gaolers. Septa Unella ushered Scolera and Moelle away and closed the
door behind them. The queen rose to her feet.
Ser Kevan looked older than when shed seen him last. He was a big man, broad in the shoulder
and thick about the waist, with a close-cropped blond beard that followed the line of his heavy jaw and
short blond hair in full retreat from his brow. A heavy woolen cloak, dyed crimson, was clasped at one
shoulder with a golden brooch in the shape of a lions head.
Thank you for coming, the queen said.
Her uncle frowned. You should sit. There are things that I must needs tell you
She did not want to sit. You are still angry with me. I hear it in your voice. Forgive me, Uncle. It
was wrong of me to throw my wine at you, but
You think I care about a cup of wine? Lancel is my son, Cersei. Your own nephew. If I am angry
with you, that is the cause. You should have looked after him, guided him, found him a likely girl of good
family. Instead you
I know. I know. Lancel wanted me more than I ever wanted him. He still does, I will wager. I
was alone, weak. Please. Uncle. Oh, Uncle. It is so good to see your face, your sweet sweet face. I have
done wicked things, I know, but I could not bear for you to hate me. She threw her arms around him,
kissed his cheek. Forgive me. Forgive me.
Ser Kevan suffered the embrace for a few heartbeats before he finally raised his own arms to
return it. His hug was short and awkward. Enough, he said, his voice still flat and cold. You are
forgiven. Now sit. I bring some hard tidings, Cersei.
His words frightened her. Has something happened to Tommen? Please, no. I have been so
afraid for my son. No one will tell me anything. Please tell me that Tommen is well.
His Grace is well. He asks about you often. Ser Kevan laid his hands on her shoulders, held her
at arms length.
Jaime, then? Is it Jaime?
No. Jaime is still in the riverlands, somewhere.

Somewhere? She did not like the sound of that. He took Raventree and accepted Lord
Blackwoods surrender, said her uncle, but on his way back to Riverrun he left his tail and went off
with a woman.
A woman? Cersei stared at him, uncomprehending. What woman? Why? Where did they
go?
No one knows. Weve had no further word of him. The woman may have been the Evenstars
daughter, Lady Brienne.
Her. The queen remembered the Maid of Tarth, a huge, ugly, shambling thing who dressed in
mans mail. Jaime would never abandon me for such a creature. My raven never reached him, elsewise
he would have come.
We have had reports of sellswords landing all over the south, Ser Kevan was saying. Tarth,
the Stepstones, Cape Wrath  where Stannis found the coin to hire a free company I would dearly love
to know. I do not have the strength to deal with them, not here. Mace Tyrell does, but he refuses to
bestir himself until this matter with his daughter has been settled.
A headsman would settle Margaery quick enough. Cersei did not care a fig for Stannis or his
sellswords. The Others take him and the Tyrells both. Let them slaughter each other, the realm will be
the better for it. Please, Uncle, take me out of here.
How? By force of arms? Ser Kevan walked to the window and gazed out, frowning. I would
need to make an abbatoir of this holy place. And I do not have the men. The best part of our forces were
at Riverrun with your brother. I had no time to raise up a new host. He turned back to face her. I have
spoken with His High Holiness. He will not release you until you have atoned for your sins.
I have confessed.
Atoned, I said. Before the city. A walk
No. She knew what her uncle was about to say, and she did not want to hear it. Never. Tell
him that, if you speak again. I am a queen, not some dockside whore.
No harm would come to you. No one will touch
No, she said, more sharply. I would sooner die.
Ser Kevan was unmoved. If that is your wish, you may soon have it granted. His High Holiness is
resolved that you be tried for regicide, deicide, incest, and high treason.
Deicide? She almost laughed. When did I kill a god?
The High Septon speaks for the Seven here on earth. Strike at him, and you are striking at the
gods themselves. Her uncle raised a hand before she could protest. It does no good to speak of such

things. Not here. The time for all that is at trial. He gazed about her cell. The look on his face spoke
volumes.
Someone is listening. Even here, even now, she dare not speak freely. She took a breath. Who
will try me?
The Faith, her uncle said, unless you insist on a trial by battle. In which case you must be
championed by a knight of the Kingsguard. Whatever the outcome, your rule is at an end. I will serve as
Tommens regent until he comes of age. Mace Tyrell has been named Kings Hand. Grand Maester
Pycelle and Ser Harys Swyft will continue as before, but Paxter Redwyne is now lord admiral and Randyll
Tarly has assumed the duties of justiciar.
Tyrell bannermen, the both of them. The whole governance of the realm was being handed to
her enemies, Queen Margaerys kith and kin. Margaery stands accused as well. Her and those cousins
of hers. How is it that the sparrows freed her and not me?
Randyll Tarly insisted. He was the first to reach Kings Landing when this storm broke, and he
brought his army with him. The Tyrell girls will still be tried, but the case against them is weak, His High
Holiness admits. All of the men named as the queens lovers have denied the accusation or recanted,
save for your maimed singer, who appears to be half-mad. So the High Septon handed the girls over to
Tarlys custody and Lord Randyll swore a holy oath to deliver them for trial when the time comes.
And her accusers? the queen demanded. Who holds them?
Osney Kettleblack and the Blue Bard are here, beneath the sept. The Redwyne twins have been
declared innocent, and Hamish the Harper has died. The rest are in the dungeons under the Red Keep, in
the charge of your man Qyburn.
Qyburn, thought Cersei. That was good, one straw at least that she could clutch. Lord Qyburn
had them, and Lord Qyburn could do wonders. And horrors. He can do horrors as well.
There is more, worse. Will you sit down?
Sit down? Cersei shook her head. What could be worse? She was to be tried for high treason
whilst the little queen and her cousins flew off as free as birds. Tell me. What is it?
Myrcella. We have had grave news from Dorne.
Tyrion, she said at once. Tyrion had sent her little girl to Dorne, and Cersei had dispatched Ser
Balon Swann to bring her home. All Dornishmen were snakes, and the Martells were the worst of them.
The Red Viper had even tried to defend the Imp, had come within a hairbreadth of a victory that would
have allowed the dwarf to escape the blame for Joffreys murder. Its him, hes been in Dorne all this
time, and now hes seized my daughter.
Ser Kevan gave her another scowl. Myrcella was attacked by a Dornish knight named Gerold
Dayne. Shes alive, but hurt. He slashed her face open, she  Im sorry  she lost an ear.

An ear. Cersei stared at him, aghast. She was just a child, my precious princess. She was so
pretty, too. He cut off her ear. And Prince Doran and his Dornish knights, where were they? They could
not defend one little girl? Where was Arys Oakheart?
Slain, defending her. Dayne cut him down, its said.
The Sword of the Morning had been a Dayne, the queen recalled, but he was long dead. Who
was this Ser Gerold and why would he wish to harm her daughter? She could not make any sense of this,
unless  Tyrion lost half his nose in the Battle of the Blackwater. Slashing her face, cutting off an ear 
the Imps grubby little fingers are all over this.
Prince Doran says nothing of your brother. And Balon Swann writes that Myrcella puts it all on
this Gerold Dayne. Darkstar, they call him.
She gave a bitter laugh. Whatever they call him, he is my brothers catspaw. Tyrion has friends
amongst the Dornish. The Imp planned this all along. It was Tyrion who betrothed Myrcella to Prince
Trystane. Now I see why.
You see Tyrion in every shadow.
He is a creature of the shadows. He killed Joffrey. He killed Father. Did you think he would stop
there? I feared that the Imp was still in Kings Landing plotting harm to Tommen, but he must have gone
to Dorne instead to kill Myrcella first. Cersei paced the width of the cell. I need to be with Tommen.
These Kingsguard knights are as useless as nipples on a breastplate. She rounded on her uncle. Ser
Arys was killed, you said.
At the hands of this man Darkstar, yes.
Dead, hes dead, you are certain of that?
That is what we have been told.
Then there is an empty place amongst the Kingsguard. It must be filled at once. Tommen must
be protected.
Lord Tarly is drawing up a list of worthy knights for your brother to consider, but until Jaime
reappears 
The king can give a man a white cloak. Tommens a good boy. Tell him who to name and he will
name him.
And who would you have him name?
She did not have a ready answer. My champion will need a new name as well as a new face.
Qyburn will know. Trust him in this. You and I have had our differences, Uncle, but for the blood we
share and the love you bore my father, for Tommens sake and the sake of his poor maimed sister, do as

I ask you. Go to Lord Qyburn on my behalf, bring him a white cloak, and tell him that the time has
come.
THE QUEENSGUARD
You were the queens man, said Reznak mo Reznak. The king desires his own men about him
when he holds court.
I am the queens man still. Today, tomorrow, always, until my last breath, or hers. Barristan
Selmy refused to believe that Daenerys Targaryen was dead.
Perhaps that was why he was being put aside. One by one, Hizdahr removes us all. Strong
Belwas lingered at the door of death in the temple, under the care of the Blue Graces  though Selmy
half suspected they were finishing the job those honeyed locusts had begun. Skahaz Shavepate had
been stripped of his command. The Unsullied had withdrawn to their barracks. Jhogo, Daario Naharis,
Admiral Groleo, and Hero of the Unsullied remained hostages of the Yunkaii. Aggo and Rakharo and the
rest of the queens khalasar had been dispatched across the river to search for their lost queen. Even
Missandei had been replaced; the king did not think it fit to use a child as his herald, and a onetime
Naathi slave at that. And now me.
There was a time when he might have taken this dismissal as a blot upon his honor. But that was
in Westeros. In the vipers pit that was Meereen, honor seemed as silly as a fools motley. And this
mistrust was mutual. Hizdahr zo Loraq might be his queens consort, but he would never be his king. If
His Grace wishes for me to remove myself from court 
His Radiance, the seneschal corrected. No, no, no, you misunderstand me. His Worship is to
receive a delegation from the Yunkaii, to discuss the withdrawal of their armies. They may ask for  ah
 recompense for those who lost their lives to the dragons wroth. A delicate situation. The king feels it
will be better if they see a Meereenese king upon the throne, protected by Meereenese warriors. Surely
you can understand that, ser.
I understand more than you know. Might I know which men His Grace has chosen to protect
him?
Reznak mo Reznak smiled his slimy smile. Fearsome fighters, who love His Worship well.
Goghor the Giant. Khrazz. The Spotted Cat. Belaquo Bonebreaker. Heroes all.
Pit fighters all. Ser Barristan was unsurprised. Hizdahr zo Loraq sat uneasily on his new throne. It
had been a thousand years since Meereen last had a king, and there were some even amongst the old
blood who thought they might have made a better choice than him. Outside the city sat the Yunkaii
with their sellswords and their allies; inside were the Sons of the Harpy.

And the kings protectors grew fewer every day. Hizdahrs blunder with Grey Worm had cost
him the Unsullied. When His Grace had tried to put them under the command of a cousin, as he had the
Brazen Beasts, Grey Worm had informed the king that they were free men who took commands only
from their mother. As for the Brazen Beasts, half were freed-men and the rest shavepates, whose true
loyalty might still be to Skahaz mo Kandaq. The pit fighters were King Hizdahrs only reliable support,
against a sea of enemies.
May they defend His Grace against all threats. Ser Barristans tone gave no hint of his true
feelings; he had learned to hide such back in Kings Landing years ago.
His Magnificence, Reznak mo Reznak stressed. Your other duties shall remain unchanged, ser.
Should this peace fail, His Radiance would still wish for you to command his forces against the enemies
of our city.
He has that much sense, at least. Belaquo Bonebreaker and Goghor the Giant might serve as
Hizdahrs shields, but the notion of either leading an army into battle was so ludicrous that the old
knight almost smiled. I am His Graces to command.
Not Grace, the seneschal complained. That style is Westerosi. His Magnificence, His
Radiance, His Worship.
His Vanity would fit better. As you say.
Reznak licked his lips. Then we are done. This time his oily smile betokened dismissal. Ser
Barristan took his leave, grateful to leave the stench of the seneschals perfume behind him. A man
should smell of sweat, not flowers.
The Great Pyramid of Meereen was eight hundred feet high from base to point. The seneschals
chambers were on the second level. The queens apartments, and his own, occupied the highest step. A
long climb for a man my age, Ser Barristan thought, as he started up. He had been known to make that
climb five or six times a day on the queens business, as the aches in his knees and the small of his back
could attest. There will come a day when I can no longer face these steps, he thought, and that day will
be here sooner than I would like. Before it came, he must make certain that at least a few of his lads
were ready to take his place at the queens side. I will knight them myself when they are worthy, and
give them each a horse and golden spurs.
The royal apartments were still and silent. Hizdahr had not taken up residence there, preferring
to establish his own suite of rooms deep in the heart of the Great Pyramid, where massive brick walls
surrounded him on all sides. Mezzara, Miklaz, Qezza, and the rest of the queens young cupbearers
hostages in truth, but both Selmy and the queen had become so fond of them that it was hard for him to
think of them that way had gone with the king, whilst Irri and Jhiqui departed with the other Dothraki.
Only Missandei remained, a forlorn little ghost haunting the queens chambers at the apex of the
pyramid.

Ser Barristan walked out onto the terrace. The sky above Meereen was the color of corpse flesh,
dull and white and heavy, a mass of unbroken cloud from horizon to horizon. The sun was hidden
behind a wall of cloud. It would set unseen, as it had risen unseen that morning. The night would be hot,
a sweaty, suffocating, sticky sort of night without a breath of air. For three days rain had threatened, but
not a drop had fallen. Rain would come as a relief. It might help wash the city clean.
From here he could see four lesser pyramids, the citys western walls, and the camps of the
Yunkishmen by the shores of Slavers Bay, where a thick column of greasy smoke twisted upward like
some monstrous serpent. The Yunkishmen burning their dead, he realized. The pale mare is galloping
through their siege camps. Despite all the queen had done, the sickness had spread, both within the city
walls and without. Meereens markets were closed, its streets empty. King Hizdahr had allowed the
fighting pits to remain open, but the crowds were sparse. The Meereenese had even begun to shun the
Temple of the Graces, reportedly.
The slavers will find some way to blame Daenerys for that as well, Ser Barristan thought bitterly.
He could almost hear them whisperingGreat Masters, Sons of the Harpy, Yunkaii, all telling one
another that his queen was dead. Half of the city believed it, though as yet they did not have the
courage to say such words aloud. But soon, I think.
Ser Barristan felt very tired, very old. Where have all the years gone? Of late, whenever he knelt
to drink from a still pool, he saw a strangers face gazing up from the waters depths. When had those
crows-feet first appeared around his pale blue eyes? How long ago had his hair turned from sunlight
into snow? Years ago, old man. Decades.
Yet it seemed like only yesterday that he had been raised to knighthood, after the tourney at
Kings Landing. He could still recall the touch of King Aegons sword upon his shoulder, light as a
maidens kiss. His words had caught in his throat when he spoke his vows. At the feast that night he had
eaten ribs of wild boar, prepared the Dornish way with dragon peppers, so hot they burned his mouth.
Forty-seven years, and the taste still lingered in his memory, yet he could not have said what he had
supped on ten days ago if all seven kingdoms had depended on it. Boiled dog, most like. Or some other
foul dish that tasted no better.
Not for the first time, Selmy wondered at the strange fates that had brought him here. He was a
knight of Westeros, a man of the stormlands and the Dornish marches; his place was in the Seven
Kingdoms, not here upon the sweltering shores of Slavers Bay. I came to bring Daenerys home. Yet he
had lost her, just as he had lost her father and her brother. Even Robert. I failed him too.
Perhaps Hizdahr was wiser than he knew. Ten years ago I would have sensed what Daenerys
meant to do. Ten years ago I would have been quick enough to stop her. Instead he had stood befuddled
as she leapt into the pit, shouting her name, then running uselessly after her across the scarlet sands. I
am become old and slow. Small wonder Naharis mocked him as Ser Grandfather. Would Daario have
moved more quickly if he had been beside the queen that day? Selmy thought he knew the answer to
that, though it was not one he liked.

He had dreamed of it again last night: Belwas on his knees retching up bile and blood, Hizdahr
urging on the dragonslayers, men and women fleeing in terror, fighting on the steps, climbing over one
another, screaming and shouting. And Daenerys 
Her hair was aflame. She had the whip in her hand and she was shouting, then she was on the
dragons back, flying. The sand that Drogon stirred as he took wing had stung Ser Barristans eyes, but
through a veil of tears he had watched the beast fly from the pit, his great black wings slapping at the
shoulders of the bronze warriors at the gates.
The rest he learned later. Beyond the gates had been a solid press of people. Maddened by the
smell of dragon, horses below reared in terror, lashing out with iron-shod hooves. Food stalls and
palanquins alike were overturned, men knocked down and trampled. Spears were thrown, cross-bows
were fired. Some struck home. The dragon twisted violently in the air, wounds smoking, the girl clinging
to his back. Then he loosed the fire.
It had taken the rest of the day and most of the night for the Brazen Beasts to gather up the
corpses. The final count was two hundred fourteen slain, three times as many burned or wounded.
Drogon was gone from the city by then, last seen high over the Skahazadhan, flying north. Of Daenerys
Targaryen, no trace had been found. Some swore they saw her fall. Others insisted that the dragon had
carried her off to devour her. They are wrong.
Ser Barristan knew no more of dragons than the tales every child hears, but he knew
Targaryens. Daenerys had been riding that dragon, as Aegon had once ridden Balerion of old.
She might be flying home, he told himself, aloud. No, murmured a soft voice behind him.
She would not do that, ser. She would not go home without us.
Ser Barristan turned. Missandei. Child. How long have you been standing there?
Not long. This one is sorry if she has disturbed you. She hesitated. Skahaz mo Kandaq wishes
words with you.
The Shavepate? You spoke with him? That was rash, rash. The enmity ran deep between
Shakaz and the king, and the girl was clever enough to know that. Skahaz had been outspoken in his
opposition to the queens marriage, a fact Hizdahr had not forgotten. Is he here? In the pyramid?
When he wishes. He comes and goes, ser.
Yes. He would. Who told you he wants words with me?
A Brazen Beast. He wore an owl mask.
He wore an owl mask when he spoke to you. By now he could be a jackal, a tiger, a sloth. Ser
Barristan had hated the masks from the start and never more than now. Honest men should never need
to hide their faces. And the Shavepate 

What could he be thinking? After Hizdahr had given command of the Brazen Beasts to his cousin
Marghaz zo Loraq, Skahaz had been named Warden of the River, with charge of all the ferries, dredges,
and irrigation ditches along the Skahazadhan for fifty leagues, but the Shavepate had refused that
ancient and honorable office, as Hizdahr called it, preferring to retire to the modest pyramid of Kandaq.
Without the queen to protect him, he takes a great risk coming here. And if Ser Barristan were seen
speaking with him, suspicion might fall on the knight as well.
He did not like the taste of this. It smelled of deceit, of whispers and lies and plots hatched in
the dark, all the things hed hoped to leave behind with the Spider and Lord Littlefinger and their ilk.
Barristan Selmy was not a bookish man, but he had often glanced through the pages of the White Book,
where the deeds of his predecessors had been recorded. Some had been heroes, some weaklings,
knaves, or cravens. Most were only menquicker and stronger than most, more skilled with sword and
shield, but still prey to pride, ambition, lust, love, anger, jealousy, greed for gold, hunger for power, and
all the other failings that afflicted lesser mortals. The best of them overcame their flaws, did their duty,
and died with their swords in their hands. The worst 
The worst were those who played the game of thrones. Can you find this owl again? he asked
Missandei.
This one can try, ser.
Tell him I will speak with  with our friend  after dark, by the stables. The pyramids main
doors were closed and barred at sunset. The stables would be quiet at that hour. Make certain it is the
same owl. It would not serve to have the wrong Brazen Beast hear of this.
This one understands. Missandei turned as if to go, then paused a moment and said, It is said
that the Yunkaii have ringed the city all about with scorpions, to loose iron bolts into the sky should
Drogon return.
Ser Barristan had heard that too. It is no simple thing to slay a dragon in the sky. In Westeros,
many tried to bring down Aegon and his sisters. None succeeded.
Missandei nodded. It was hard to tell if she was reassured. Do you think that they will find her,
ser? The grasslands are so vast, and dragons leave no tracks across the sky.
Aggo and Rakharo are blood of her blood  and who knows the Doth raki sea better than
Dothraki? He squeezed her shoulder. They will find her if she can be found. If she still lives. There
were other khals who prowled the grass, horselords with khalasars whose riders numbered in the tens
of thousands. But the girl did not need to hear that. You love her well, I know. I swear, I shall keep her
safe.
The words seemed to give the girl some comfort. Words are wind, though, Ser Barristan
thought. How can I protect the queen when I am not with her?

Barristan Selmy had known many kings. He had been born during the troubled reign of Aegon
the Unlikely, beloved by the common folk, had received his knighthood at his hands. Aegons son
Jaehaerys had bestowed the white cloak on him when he was three-and-twenty, after he slew Maelys
the Monstrous during the War of the Ninepenny Kings. In that same cloak he had stood beside the Iron
Throne as madness consumed Jaehaeryss son Aerys. Stood, and saw, and heard, and yet did nothing.
But no. That was not fair. He did his duty. Some nights, Ser Barristan wondered if he had not
done that duty too well. He had sworn his vows before the eyes of gods and men, he could not in honor
go against them  but the keeping of those vows had grown hard in the last years of King Aeryss reign.
He had seen things that it pained him to recall, and more than once he wondered how much of the
blood was on his own hands. If he had not gone into Duskendale to rescue Aerys from Lord Darklyns
dungeons, the king might well have died there as Tywin Lannister sacked the town. Then Prince Rhaegar
would have ascended the Iron Throne, mayhaps to heal the realm. Duskendale had been his finest hour,
yet the memory tasted bitter on his tongue.
It was his failures that haunted him at night, though. Jaehaerys, Aerys, Robert. Three dead kings.
Rhaegar, who would have been a finer king than any of them. Princess Elia and the children. Aegon just a
babe, Rhaenys with her kitten. Dead, every one, yet he still lived, who had sworn to protect them. And
now Daenerys, his bright shining child queen. She is not dead. I will not believe it.
Afternoon brought Ser Barristan a brief respite from his doubts. He spent it in the training hall
on the pyramids third level, working with his boys, teaching them the art of sword and shield, horse and
lance  and chivalry, the code that made a knight more than any pit fighter. Daenerys would need
protectors her own age about her after he was gone, and Ser Barristan was determined to give her such.
The lads he was instructing ranged in age from eight to twenty. He had started with more than
sixty of them, but the training had proved too rigorous for many. Less than half that number now
remained, but some showed great promise. With no king to guard, I will have more time to train them
now, he realized as he walked from pair to pair, watching them go at one another with blunted swords
and spears with rounded heads. Brave boys. Baseborn, aye, but some will make good knights, and they
love the queen. If not for her, all of them would have ended in the pits. King Hizdahr has his pit fighters,
but Daenerys will have knights.
Keep your shield up, he called. Show me your strokes. Together now. Low, high, low, low,
high, low 
Selmy took his simple supper out onto the queens terrace that night and ate it as the sun went
down. Through the purple twilight he watched fires waken one by one in the great stepped pyramids, as
the many-colored bricks of Meereen faded to grey and then to black. Shadows gathered in the streets
and alleys below, making pools and rivers. In the dusk, the city seemed a tranquil place, even beautiful.
That is pestilence, not peace, the old knight told himself with his last sip of wine.
He did not wish to be conspicuous, so when he was finished with his supper he changed out of
his court clothes, trading the white cloak of the Queensguard for a hooded brown travelers cloak such

as any common man might wear. He kept his sword and dagger. This could still be some trap. He had
little trust in Hizdahr and less in Reznak mo Reznak. The perfumed seneschal could well be part of this,
trying to lure him into a secret meeting so he could sweep up him and Skahaz both and charge them
with conspiring against the king. If the Shavepate speaks treason, he will leave me no choice but to arrest
him. Hizdahr is my queens consort, however little I may like it. My duty is to him, not Skahaz.
Or was it?
The first duty of the Kingsguard was to defend the king from harm or threat. The white knights
were sworn to obey the kings commands as well, to keep his secrets, counsel him when counsel was
requested and keep silent when it was not, serve his pleasure and defend his name and honor. Strictly
speaking, it was purely the kings choice whether or not to extend Kingsguard protection to others, even
those of royal blood. Some kings thought it right and proper to dispatch Kingsguard to serve and defend
their wives and children, siblings, aunts, uncles, and cousins of greater and lesser degree, and
occasionally even their lovers, mistresses, and bastards. But others preferred to use household knights
and men-at-arms for those purposes, whilst keeping their seven as their own personal guard, never far
from their sides.
If the queen had commanded me to protect Hizdahr, I would have had no choice but to obey. But
Daenerys Targaryen had never established a proper Queensguard even for herself nor issued any
commands in respect to her consort. The world was simpler when I had a lord commander to decide
such matters, Selmy reflected. Now I am the lord commander, and it is hard to know which path is right.
When at last he came to the bottom of the last flight of steps, he found himself all but alone
amongst the torchlit corridors inside the pyramids massive brick walls. The great gates were closed and
barred, as he had anticipated. Four Brazen Beasts stood guard outside those doors, four more within. It
was those that the old knight encounteredbig men, masked as boar, bear, vole, and manticore.
All quiet, ser, the bear told him.
Keep it so. It was not unknown for Ser Barristan to walk around at night, to make certain the
pyramid was secure.
Deeper inside the pyramid, another four Brazen Beasts had been set to guard the iron doors
outside the pit where Viserion and Rhaegal were chained. The light of the torches shimmered off their
masksape, ram, wolf, crocodile.
Have they been fed? Ser Barristan asked. Aye, ser, replied the ape. A sheep apiece.
And how long will that suffice, I wonder? As the dragons grew, so did their appetites.
It was time to find the Shavepate. Ser Barristan made his way past the elephants and the
queens silver mare, to the back of the stables. An ass nickered as he went by, and a few of the horses
stirred at the light of his lantern. Elsewise all was dark and silent.

Then a shadow detached itself from inside an empty stall and became another Brazen Beast,
clad in pleated black skirt, greaves, and muscled breastplate. A cat? said Barristan Selmy when he saw
the brass beneath the hood. When the Shavepate had commanded the Brazen Beasts, he had favored a
serpents-head mask, imperious and frightening.
Cats go everywhere, replied the familiar voice of Skahaz mo Kandaq. No one ever looks at
them.
If Hizdahr should learn that you are here 
Who will tell him? Marghaz? Marghaz knows what I want him to know. The Beasts are still
mine. Do not forget it. The Shavepates voice was muffled by his mask, but Selmy could hear the anger
in it. I have the poisoner.
Who?
Hizdahrs confectioner. His name would mean nothing to you. The man was just a cats paw.
The Sons of the Harpy took his daughter and swore she would be returned unharmed once the queen
was dead. Belwas and the dragon saved Daenerys. No one saved the girl. She was returned to her father
in the black of night, in nine pieces. One for every year she lived.
Why? Doubts gnawed at him. The Sons had stopped their killing. Hizdahrs peace
is a sham. Not at first, no. The Yunkaii were afraid of our queen, of her Unsullied, of her
dragons. This land has known dragons before. Yurkhaz zo Yunzak had read his histories, he knew.
Hizdahr as well. Why not a peace? Daenerys wanted it, they could see that. Wanted it too much. She
should have marched to Astapor. Skahaz moved closer. That was before. The pit changed all. Daenerys
gone, Yurkhaz dead. In place of one old lion, a pack of jackals. Bloodbeard  that one has no taste for
peace. And there is more. Worse. Volantis has launched its fleet against us.
Volantis. Selmys sword hand tingled. We made a peace with Yunkai. Not with Volantis. You
are certain?
Certain. The Wise Masters know. So do their friends. The Harpy, Reznak, Hizdahr. This king will
open the city gates to the Volantenes when they arrive. All those Daenerys freed will be enslaved again.
Even some who were never slaves will be fitted for chains. You may end your days in a fighting pit, old
man. Khrazz will eat your heart.
His head was pounding. Daenerys must be told.
Find her first. Skahaz grasped his forearm. His fingers felt like iron. We cannot wait for her. I
have spoken with the Free Brothers, the Moth-ers Men, the Stalwart Shields. They have no trust in
Loraq. We must break the Yunkaii. But we need the Unsullied. Grey Worm will listen to you. Speak to
him.

To what end? He is speaking treason. Conspiracy. Life. The Shavepates eyes were black
pools behind the brazen cat mask. We must strike before the Volantenes arrive. Break the siege, kill the
slaver lords, turn their sellswords. The Yunkaii do not expect an attack. I have spies in their camps.
Theres sickness, they say, worse every day. Discipline has gone to rot. The lords are drunk more oft than
not, gorging themselves at feasts, telling each other of the riches theyll divide when Meereen falls,
squabbling over primacy. Bloodbeard and the Tattered Prince despise each other. No one expects a
fight. Not now. Hizdahrs peace has lulled us to sleep, they believe.
Daenerys signed that peace, Ser Barristan said. It is not for us to break it without her leave.
And if she is dead? demanded Skahaz. What then, ser? I say she would want us to protect her
city. Her children.
Her children were the freedmen. Mhysa, they called her, all those whose chains she broke.
Mother. The Shavepate was not wrong. Daenerys would want her children protected. What of
Hizdahr? He is still her consort. Her king. Her husband.
Her poisoner.
Is he? Where is your proof?
The crown he wears is proof enough. The throne he sits. Open your eyes, old man. That is all he
needed from Daenerys, all he ever wanted. Once he had it, why share the rule?
Why indeed? It had been so hot down in the pit. He could still see the air shimmering above the
scarlet sands, smell the blood spilling from the men whod died for their amusement. And he could still
hear Hizdahr, urging his queen to try the honeyed locusts. Those are very tasty  sweet and hot  yet he
never touched so much as one himself  Selmy rubbed his temple. I swore no vows to Hizdahr zo Loraq.
And if I had, he has cast me aside, just as Joffrey did. This  this confectioner, I want to question him
myself. Alone.
Is it that way? The Shavepate crossed his arms against his chest. Done, then. Question him as
you like.
If  if what he has to say convinces me  if I join with you in this, this  I would require your
word that no harm would come to Hizdahr zo Loraq until  unless  it can be proved that he had some
part in this.
Why do you care so much for Hizdahr, old man? If he is not the Harpy, he is the Harpys
firstborn son.
All I know for certain is that he is the queens consort. I want your word on this, or I swear, I
shall oppose you.

Skahazs smile was savage. My word, then. No harm to Hizdahr till his guilt is proved. But when
we have the proof, I mean to kill him with my own hands. I want to pull his entrails out and show them
to him before I let him die.
No, the old knight thought. If Hizdahr conspired at my queens death, I will see to him myself, but
his death will be swift and clean. The gods of Westeros were far away, yet Ser Barristan Selmy paused
for a moment to say a silent prayer, asking the Crone to light his way to wisdom. For the children, he told
himself. For the city. For my queen.
I will talk to Grey Worm, he said.
THE IRON SUITOR
Grief appeared alone at daybreak, her black sails stark against the pale pink skies of morning.
Fifty-four, Victarion thought sourly when they woke him, and she sails alone. Silently he cursed
the Storm God for his malice, his rage a black stone in his belly. Where are my ships?
He had set sail from the Shields with ninety-three, of the hundred that had once made up the
Iron Fleet, a fleet belonging not to a single lord but to the Seastone Chair itself, captained and crewed by
men from all the islands. Ships smaller than the great war dromonds of the green lands, aye, but thrice
the size of any common longship, with deep hulls and savage rams, fit to meet the kings own fleets in
battle.
In the Stepstones they ha d taken on grain and game and fresh water, after the long voyage
along the bleak and barren coast of Dorne with its shoals and whirlpools. There, the Iron Victory had
captured a fat merchant ship, the great cog Noble Lady, on her way to Oldtown by way of Gulltown,
Dusk endale, and Kings Landing, with a cargo of salt cod, whale oil, and pickled herring. The food was a
welcome addition to their stores. Five other prizes taken in the Redwyne Straights and along the Dornish
coastthree cogs, a galleas, and a galleyhad brought their numbers to ninety-nine.
Nine-and-ninety ships had left the Stepstones in three proud fleets, with orders to join up again
off the southern tip of the Isle of Cedars. Forty-five had now arrived on the far side of the world.
Twenty-two of Victarions own had straggled in, by threes and fours, sometimes alone; fourteen of Ralf
the Limpers; only nine of those that had sailed with Red Ralf Stonehouse. Red Ralf himself was amongst
the missing. To their number the fleet had added nine new prizes taken on the seas, so the sum was
fifty-four  but the captured ships were cogs and fishing boats, merchantmen and slavers, not warships.
In battle, they would be poor substitutes for the lost ships of the Iron Fleet.
The last ship to appear had been the Maidens Bane, three days previous. The day before that,
three ships had come out of the south togetherhis captive Noble Lady, lumbering along between
Ravenfeeder and Iron Kiss. But the day before and the day before there had been nothing, and only

Headless Jeyne and Fear before that, then two more days of empty seas and cloudless skies after Ralf
the Limper appeared with the remnants of his squadron. Lord Quellon, White Widow, Lamentation,
Woe, Leviathan, Iron Lady, Reapers Wind, and Warhammer, with six more ships behind, two of them
storm-wracked and under tow.
Storms, Ralf the Limper had muttered when he came crawling to Victarion. Three big storms,
and foul winds between. Red winds out of Valyria that smelled of ash and brimstone, and black winds
that drove us toward that blighted shore. This voyage was cursed from the first. The Crows Eye fears
you, my lord, why else send you so far away? He does not mean for us to return.
Victarion had thought the same when he met the first storm a day out of Old Volantis. The gods
hate kinslayers, he brooded, elsewise Euron Crows Eye would have died a dozen deaths by my hand. As
the sea crashed around him and the deck rose and fell beneath his feet, he had seen Dagons Feast and
Red Tide slammed together so violently that both exploded into splinters. My brothers work, hed
thought. Those were the first two ships hed lost from his own third of the fleet. But not the last.
So he had slapped the Limper twice across the face and said, The first is for the ships you lost,
the second for your talk of curses. Speak of that again and I will nail your tongue to the mast. If the
Crows Eye can make mutes, so can I. The throb of pain in his left hand made the words harsher than
they might have been elsewise, but he meant what he said. More ships will come. The storms are done
for now. I will have my fleet.
A monkey on the mast above howled derision, almost as if it could taste his frustration. Filthy,
noisy beast. He could send a man up after it, but the monkeys seemed to like that game and had proved
themselves more agile than his crew. The howls rang in his ears, though, and made the throbbing in his
hand seem worse.
Fifty-four, he grumbled. It would have been too much to hope for the full strength of the Iron
Fleet after a voyage of such length  but seventy ships, even eighty, the Drowned God might have
granted him that much. Would that we had the Damphair with us, or some other priest. Victarion had
made sacrifice before setting sail, and again in the Stepstones when he split the fleet in three, but
perhaps he had said the wrong prayers. That, or the Drowned God has no power here. More and more,
he had come to fear that they had sailed too far, into strange seas where even the gods were queer 
but such doubts he confided only to his dusky woman, who had no tongue to repeat them.
When Grief appeared, Victarion summoned Wulfe One-Ear. I will want words with the Vole.
Send word to Ralf the Limper, Bloodless Tom, and the Black Shepherd. All hunting parties are to be
recalled, the shore camps broken up by first light. Load as much fruit as can be gathered and drive the
pigs aboard the ships. We can slaughter them at need. Shark is to remain here to tell any stragglers
where weve gone. She would need that long to make repairs; the storms had left her little more than a
hulk. That would bring them down to fifty-three, but there was no help for it. The fleet departs upon
the morrow, on the evening tide.
As you command, said Wulfe, but another day might mean another ship, lord Captain.

Aye. And ten days might mean ten ships, or none at all. We have squandered too many days
waiting on the sight of sails. Our victory will be that much the sweeter if we win it with a smaller fleet.
And I must needs reach the dragon queen before the Volantenes.
In Volantis he had seen the galleys taking on provisions. The whole city had seemed drunk.
Sailors and soldiers and tinkers had been observed dancing in the streets with nobles and fat merchants,
and in every inn and winesink cups were being raised to the new triarchs. All the talk had been of the
gold and gems and slaves that would flood into Volantis once the dragon queen was dead. One day of
such reports was all that Victarion Greyjoy could stomach; he paid the gold price for food and water,
though it shamed him, and took his ships back out to sea.
The storms would have scattered and delayed the Volantenes, even as they had his own ships. If
fortune smiled, many of their warships might have sunk or run aground. But not all. No god was that
good, and those green galleys that survived by now could well have sailed around Valyria. They will be
sweeping north toward Meereen and Yunkai, great dromonds of war teeming with slave soldiers. If the
Storm God spared them, by now they could be in the Gulf of Grief. Three hundred ships, perhaps as many
as five hundred. Their allies were already off Meereen: Yunkishmen and Astapors, men from New Ghis
and Qarth and Tolos and the Storm God knew where else, even Meereens own warships, the ones that
fled the city before its fall. Against all that, Victarion had four-and-fifty. Three-and-fifty, less the Shark.
The Crows Eye had sailed halfway across the world, reaving and plundering from Qarth to Tall
Trees Town, calling at unholy ports beyond where only madmen went. Euron had even braved the
Smoking Sea and lived to tell of it. And that with only one ship. If he can mock the gods, so can I.
Aye, Captain, said Wulfe One-Ear. He was not half the man that Nute the Barber was, but the
Crows Eye had stolen Nute. By raising him to Lord of Oakenshield, his brother made Victarions best
man his own. Is it still to be Meereen?
Where else? The dragon queen awaits me in Meereen. The fairest woman in the world if my
brother could be believed. Her hair is silver-gold, her eyes are amethysts.
Was it too much to hope that for once Euron had told it true? Perhaps. Like as not, the girl
would prove to be some pock-faced slattern with teats slapping against her knees, her dragons no
more than tattooed lizards from the swamps of Sothoryos. If she is all that Euron claims, though  They
had heard talk of the beauty of Daenerys Targaryen from the lips of pirates in the Stepstones and fat
merchants in Old Volantis. It might be true. And Euron had not made Victarion a gift of her; the Crows
Eye meant to take her for himself. He sends me like a serving man to fetch her. How he will howl when I
claim her for myself. Let the men mutter. They had sailed too far and lost too much for Victarion to turn
west without his prize.
The iron captain closed his good hand into a fist. Go see that my commands are carried out.
And find the maester wherever he is hiding and send him to my cabin.
Aye. Wulfe hobbled off.

Victarion Greyjoy turned back toward the prow, his gaze sweeping across his fleet. Longships
filled the sea, sails furled and oars shipped, floating at anchor or run up on the pale sand shore. The Isle
of Cedars. Where were these cedars? Drowned four hundred years ago, it seemed. Victarion had gone
ashore a dozen times, hunting fresh meat, and had yet to see a cedar.
The girlish maester Euron had inflicted upon him back in Westeros claimed this place had once
been called the Isle of a Hundred Battles, but the men who had fought those battles had all gone to
dust centuries ago. The Isle of Monkeys, thats what they should call it. There were pigs as well: the
biggest, blackest boars that any of the ironborn had ever seen and plenty of squealing piglets in the
brush, bold creatures that had no fear of man. They were learning, though. The larders of the Iron Fleet
were filling up with smoked hams, salted pork, and bacon.
The monkeys, though  the monkeys were a plague. Victarion had forbidden his men to bring
any of the demonic creatures aboard ship, yet somehow half his fleet was now infested with them, even
his own Iron Victory. He could see some now, swinging from spar to spar and ship to ship. Would that I
had a crossbow.
Victarion did not like this sea, nor these endless cloudless skies, nor the blazing sun that beat
down on their heads and baked the decks until the boards were hot enough to scorch bare feet. He did
not like these storms, which seemed to come up out of nowhere. The seas around Pyke were often
stormy, but there at least a man could smell them coming. These southron storms were as treacherous
as women. Even the water was the wrong colora shimmering turquoise close to shore, and farther out
a blue so deep that it was almost black. Victarion missed the grey-green waters of home, with their
whitecaps and surges.
He did not like this Isle of Cedars either. The hunting might be good, but the forests were too
green and still, full of twisted trees and queer bright flowers like none his men had ever seen before,
and there were horrors lurking amongst the broken palaces and shattered statues of drowned Velos,
half a league north of the point where the fleet lay at anchor. The last time Victarion had spent a night
ashore, his dreams had been dark and disturbing and when he woke his mouth was full of blood. The
maester said he had bitten his own tongue in his sleep, but he took it for a sign from the Drowned God,
a warning that if he lingered here too long, he would choke on his own blood.
On the day the Doom came to Valyria, it was said, a wall of water three hundred feet high had
descended on the island, drowning hundreds of thousands of men, women, and children, leaving none
to tell the tale but some fisherfolk who had been at sea and a handful of Velosi spearmen posted in a
stout stone tower on the islands highest hill, who had seen the hills and valleys beneath them turn into
a raging sea. Fair Velos with its palaces of cedar and pink marble had vanished in a heartbeat. On the
north end of the island, the ancient brick walls and stepped pyramids of the slaver port Ghozai had
suffered the same fate.
So many drowned men, the Drowned God will be strong there, Victarion had thought when he
chose the island for the three parts of his fleet to join up again. He was no priest, though. What if he had
gotten it backwards? Perhaps the Drowned God had destroyed the island in his wroth. His brother

Aeron might have known, but the Damphair was back on the Iron Islands, preaching against the Crows
Eye and his rule. No godless man may sit the Seastone Chair. Yet the captains and kings had cried for
Euron at the kingsmoot, choosing him above Victarion and other godly men.
The morning sun was shining off the water in ripples of light too bright to look upon. Victarions
head had begun to pound, though whether from the sun, his hand, or the doubts that troubled him, he
could not say. He made his way below to his cabin, where the air was cool and dim. The dusky woman
knew what he wanted without his even asking. As he eased himself into his chair, she took a soft damp
cloth from the basin and laid it across his brow. Good, he said. Good. And now the hand.
The dusky woman made no reply. Euron had sliced her tongue out before giving her to him.
Victarion did not doubt that the Crows Eye had bedded her as well. That was his brothers way. Eurons
gifts are poisoned, the captain had reminded himself the day the dusky woman came aboard. I want
none of his leavings. He had decided then that he would slit her throat and toss her in the sea, a blood
sacrifice to the Drowned God. Somehow, though, he had never quite gotten around to it.
They had come a long way since. Victarion could talk to the dusky woman. She never attempted
to talk back. Grief is the last, he told her, as she eased his glove off. The rest are lost or late or sunk.
He grimaced as the woman slid the point of her knife beneath the soiled linen wound about his shield
hand. Some will say I should not have split the fleet. Fools. Nine-and-ninety ships we had  a
cumbersome beast to shepherd across the seas to the far end of the world. If Id kept them together,
the faster ships would have been held hostage to the slowest. And where to find provisions for so many
mouths? No port wants so many warships in their waters. The storms would have scattered us, in any
case. Like leaves strewn across the Summer Sea.
Instead he had broken the great fleet into squadrons, and sent each by a different route to
Slavers Bay. The swiftest ships he gave to Red Ralf Stonehouse to sail the corsairs road along the
northern coast of Sothoryos. The dead cities rotting on that fervid, sweltering shore were best avoided,
every seamen knew, but in the mud-and-blood towns of the Basilisks Isles, teeming with escaped slaves,
slavers, skinners, whores, hunters, brindled men, and worse, there were always provisions to be had for
men who were not afraid to pay the iron price.
The larger, heavier, slower ships made for Lys, to sell the captives taken on the Shields, the
women and children of Lord Hewetts Town and other islands, along with such men who decided they
would sooner yield than die. Victarion had only contempt for such weaklings. Even so, the selling left a
foul taste in his mouth. Taking a man as thrall or a woman as a salt wife, that was right and proper, but
men were not goats or fowl to be bought and sold for gold. He was glad to leave the selling to Ralf the
Limper, who would use the coin to load his big ships with provisions for the long slow middle passage
east.
His own ships crept along the shores of the Disputed Lands to take on food and wine and fresh
water at Volantis before swinging south around Valyria. That was the most common way east, and the
one most heavily trafficked, with prizes for the taking and small islands where they could shelter during
storms, make repairs, and renew their stores if need be.

Four-and-fifty ships is too few, he told the dusky woman, but I can wait no longer. The only
wayHe grunted as she peeled the bandage off, tearing a crust of scab as well. The flesh beneath was
green and black where the sword had sliced him.the only way to do this is to take the slavers
unawares, as once I did at Lannisport. Sweep in from the sea and smash them, then take the girl and
race for home before the Volantenes descend upon us. Victarion was no craven, but no more was he a
fool; he could not defeat three hundred ships with fifty-four. Shell be my wife, and you will be her
maid. A maid without a tongue could never let slip any secrets.
He might have said more, but that was when the maester came, rapping at the cabin door as
timid as a mouse. Enter, Victarion called out, and bar the door. You know why you are here.
Lord Captain. The maester looked like a mouse as well, with his grey robes and little brown
mustachio. Does he think that makes him look more manly? Kerwin was his name. He was very young,
two-and-twenty maybe. May I see your hand? he asked.
A fools question. Maesters had their uses, but Victarion had nothing but contempt for this
Kerwin. With his smooth pink cheeks, soft hands, and brown curls, he looked more girlish than most
girls. When first he came aboard the Iron Victory, he had a smirky little smile too, but one night off the
Stepstones he had smiled at the wrong man, and Burton Humble had knocked out four of his teeth. Not
long after that Kerwin had come creeping to the captain to complain that four of the crew had dragged
him belowdecks and used him as a woman. Here is how you put an end to that, Victarion had told
him, slamming a dagger down on the table between them. Kerwin took the bladetoo afraid to refuse
it, the captain judgedbut he had never used it.
My hand is here, Victarion said. Look all you like.
Maester Kerwin went down to one knee, the better to inspect the wound. He even sniffed at it,
like a dog. I will need to let the pus again. The color  lord Captain, the cut is not healing. It may be that
I will need to take your hand.
They had talked of this before. If you take my hand, I will kill you. But first I will tie you over the
rail and make the crew a gift of your arse. Get on with it.
There will be pain.
Always. Life is pain, you fool. There is no joy but in the Drowned Gods watery halls. Do it.
The boyit was hard to think of one so soft and pink as a manlaid the edge of the dagger
across the captains palm and slashed. The pus that burst forth was thick and yellow as sour milk. The
dusky woman wrinkled her nose at the smell, the maester gagged, and even Victarion himself felt his
stomach churn. Cut deeper. Get it all. Show me the blood.
Maester Kerwin pressed the dagger deep. This time it hurt, but blood welled up as well as pus,
blood so dark that it looked black in the lantern light.

Blood was good. Victarion grunted in approval. He sat there unflinching as the maester dabbed
and squeezed and cleaned the pus away with squares of soft cloth boiled in vinegar. By the time he
finished, the clean water in his basin had become a scummy soup. The sight alone would sicken any
man. Take that filth and go. Victarion nodded at the dusky woman. She can bind me up.
Even after the boy had fled, the stink remained. Of late, there was no escaping it. The maester
had suggested that the wound might best be drained up on deck, amidst fresh air and sunlight, but
Victarion forbade it. This was not something that his crew could see. They were half a world away from
home, too far to let them see that their iron captain had begun to rust.
His left hand still throbbeda dull pain, but persistent. When he closed his hand into a fist it
sharpened, as if a knife were stabbing up his arm. Not a knife, a longsword. A longsword in the hand of a
ghost. Serry, that had been his name. A knight, and heir to Southshield. I killed him, but he stabs at me
from beyond the grave. From the hot heart of whatever hell I sent him to, he thrusts his steel into my
hand and twists.
Victarion remembered the fight as if it had been yesterday. His shield had been in shards,
hanging useless from his arm, so when Serrys longsword came flashing down he had reached up and
caught it. The stripling had been stronger than he looked; his blade bit through the lobstered steel of the
captains gauntlet and the padded glove beneath into the meat of his palm. A scratch from a little kitten,
Victarion told himself afterward. He had washed the cut, poured some boiled vinegar over it, bound it
up, and thought little more of it, trusting that the pain would fade and the hand heal itself in time.
Instead the wound had festered, until Victarion began to wonder whether Serrys blade had
been poisoned. Why else would the cut refuse to heal? The thought made him rage. No true man killed
with poison. At Moat Cailin the bog devils had loosed poisoned arrows at his men, but that was to be
expected from such degraded creatures. Serry had been a knight, highborn. Poison was for cravens,
women, and Dornishmen.
If not Serry, who? he asked the dusky woman. Could that mouse of a maester be doing this?
Maesters know spells and other tricks. He might be using one to poison me, hoping I will let him cut my
hand off. The more he thought on it, the more likely it seemed. The Crows Eye gave him to me,
wretched creature that he is. Euron had taken Kerwin off Greenshield, where he had been in service to
Lord Chester, tending his ravens and teaching his children, or perhaps the other away around. And how
the mouse had squealed when one of Eurons mutes delivered him aboard the Iron Victory, dragging
him along by the convenient chain about his neck. If this is his revenge, he wrongs me. It was Euron
who insisted he be taken, to keep him from making mischief with his birds. His brother had given him
three cages of ravens too, so Kerwin could send back word of their voyaging, but Victarion had
forbidden him to loose them. Let the Crows Eye stew and wonder.
The dusky woman was binding his hand with fresh linen, wrapping it six times around his palm,
when Longwater Pyke came pounding at the cabin door to tell him that the captain of Grief had come
aboard with a prisoner. Says hes brought us a wizard, Captain. Says he fished him from the sea.

A wizard? Could the Drowned God have sent a gift to him, here on the far side of the world?
His brother Aeron would have known, but Aeron had seen the majesty of the Drowned Gods watery
halls below the sea before being returned to life. Victarion had a healthy fear of his god, as all men
should, but put his faith in steel. He flexed his wounded hand, grimacing, then pulled his glove on and
rose. Show me this wizard.
Grief s master awaited them on deck. A small man, as hairy as he was homely, he was a Sparr by
birth. His men called him the Vole. Lord Captain, he said when Victarion appeared, this is Moqorro. A
gift to us from the Drowned God.
The wizard was a monster of a man, as tall as Victarion himself and twice as wide, with a belly
like a boulder and a tangle of bone-white hair that grew about his face like a lions mane. His skin was
black. Not the nut brown of the Summer Islanders on their swan ships, nor the red-brown of the
Dothraki horselords, nor the charcoal-and-earth color of the dusky womans skin, but black. Blacker than
coal, blacker than jet, blacker than a ravens wing. Burned, Victarion thought, like a man who has been
roasted in the flames until his flesh chars and crisps and falls smoking from his bones. The fires that had
charred him still danced across his cheeks and forehead, where his eyes peered out from amongst a
mask of frozen flames. Slave tattoos, the captain knew. Marks of evil.
We found him clinging to a broken spar, said the Vole. He was ten days in the water after his
ship went down.
If he were ten days in the water, hed be dead, or mad from drinking seawater. Salt water was
holy; Aeron Damphair and other priests might bless men with it and swallow a mouthful or two from
time to time to strengthen their faith, but no mortal man could drink of the deep sea for days at a time
and hope to live. You claim to be a sorcerer? Victarion asked the prisoner.
No, Captain, the black man answered in the Common Tongue. His voice was so deep it
seemed to come from the bottom of the sea. I am but a humble slave of Rhllor, the Lord of Light.
Rhllor. A red priest, then. Victarion had seen such men in foreign cities, tending their sacred
fires. Those had worn rich red robes of silk and velvet and lambswool. This one was dressed in faded,
salt-stained rags that clung to his thick legs and hung about his torso in tatters  but when the captain
peered at the rags more closely, it did appear as if they might once have been red. A pink priest,
Victarion announced.
A demon priest, said Wulfe One-Ear. He spat. Might be his robes caught fire, so he jumped
overboard to put them out, suggested Longwater Pyke, to general laughter. Even the monkeys were
amused. They chattered overhead, and one flung down a handful of his own shit to spatter on the
boards.
Victarion Greyjoy mistrusted laughter. The sound of it always left him with the uneasy feeling
that he was the butt of some jape he did not understand. Euron Crows Eye had oft made mock of him
when they were boys. So had Aeron, before he had become the Damphair. Their mockery oft came

disguised as praise, and sometimes Victarion had not even realized he was being mocked. Not until he
heard the laughter. Then came the anger, boiling up in the back of his throat until he was like to choke
upon the taste. That was how he felt about the monkeys. Their antics never brought so much as a smile
to the captains face, though his crew would roar and hoot and whistle.
Send him down to the Drowned God before he brings a curse upon us, urged Burton Humble.
A ship gone down, and only him clinging to the wreckage, said Wulfe One-Ear. Wheres the
crew? Did he call down demons to devour them? What happened to this ship?
A storm. Moqorro crossed his arms against his chest. He did not appear frightened, though all
around him men were calling for his death. Even the monkeys did not seem to like this wizard. They
leapt from line to line overhead, screaming.
Victarion was uncertain. He came out of the sea. Why would the Drowned God cast him up
unless he meant for us to find him? His brother Euron had his pet wizards. Perhaps the Drowned God
meant for Victarion to have one too. Why do you say this man is a wizard? he asked the Vole. I see
only a ragged red priest.
I thought the same, lord Captain  but he knows things. He knew that we made for Slavers Bay
before any man could tell him, and he knew you would be here, off this island. The small man
hesitated. Lord Captain, he told me  he told me you would surely die unless we brought him to you.
That I would die? Victarion snorted. Cut his throat and throw him in the sea, he was about to
say, until a throb of pain in his bad hand went stabbing up his arm almost to the elbow, the agony so
intense that his words turned to bile in his throat. He stumbled and seized the rail to keep from falling.
The sorcerers cursed the captain, a voice said.
Other men took up the cry. Cut his throat! Kill him before he calls his demons down on us!
Longwater Pyke was the first to draw his dirk. NO! Victarion bellowed. Stand back! All of you. Pyke,
put up your steel. Vole, back to your ship. Humble, take the wizard to my cabin. The rest of you, about
your duties. For half a heartbeat he was not certain they would obey. They stood about muttering, half
with blades to hand, each looking to the others for resolve. Monkey shit rained down around them all,
splat splat splat. No one moved until Victarion seized the sorcerer by the arm and pulled him to the
hatchway.
As he opened the door to the captains cabin, the dusky woman turned toward him, silent and
smiling  but when she saw the red priest at his side her lips drew back from her teeth, and she
hisssssed in sudden fury, like a snake. Victarion gave her the back of his good hand and knocked her to
the deck. Be quiet, woman. Wine for both of us. He turned to the black man. Did the Vole speak
true? You saw my death?
That, and more.

Where? When? Will I die in battle? His good hand opened and closed. If you lie to me, I will
split your head open like a melon and let the monkeys eat your brains.
Your death is with us now, my lord. Give me your hand.
My hand. What do you know of my hand?
I have seen you in the nightfires, Victarion Greyjoy. You come striding through the flames stern
and fierce, your great axe dripping blood, blind to the tentacles that grasp you at wrist and neck and
ankle, the black strings that make you dance.
Dance? Victarion bristled. Your nightfires lie. I was not made for dancing, and I am no mans
puppet. He yanked off his glove and shoved his bad hand at the priests face. Here. Is this what you
wanted? The new linen was already discolored by blood and pus. He had a rose on his shield, the man
who gave this to me. I scratched my hand on a thorn.
Even the smallest scratch can prove mortal, lord Captain, but if you will allow me, I will heal
this. I will need a blade. Silver would be best, but iron will serve. A brazier as well. I must needs light a
fire. There will be pain. Terrible pain, such as you have never known. But when we are done, your hand
will be returned to you.
They are all the same, these magic men. The mouse warned me of pain as well. I am ironborn,
priest. I laugh at pain. You will have what you require  but if you fail, and my hand is not healed, I will
cut your throat myself and give you to the sea.
Moqorro bowed, his dark eyes shining. So be it.
The iron captain was not seen again that day, but as the hours passed the crew of his Iron
Victory reported hearing the sound of wild laughter coming from the captains cabin, laughter deep and
dark and mad, and when Longwater Pyke and Wulfe One-Eye tried the cabin door they found it barred.
Later singing was heard, a strange high wailing song in a tongue the maester said was High Valyrian. That
was when the monkeys left the ship, screeching as they leapt into the water.
Come sunset, as the sea turned black as ink and the swollen sun tinted the sky a deep and
bloody red, Victarion came back on deck. He was naked from the waist up, his left arm blood to the
elbow. As his crew gathered, whispering and trading glances, he raised a charred and blackened hand.
Wisps of dark smoke rose from his fingers as he pointed at the maester. That one. Cut his throat and
throw him in the sea, and the winds will favor us all the way to Meereen. Moqorro had seen that in his
fires. He had seen the wench wed too, but what of it? She would not be the first woman Victarion
Greyjoy had made a widow.
TYRION

The healer entered the tent murmuring pleasantries, but one sniff of the foul air and a glance at
Yezzan zo Qaggaz put an end to that. The pale mare, the man told Sweets.
What a surprise, Tyrion thought. Who could have guessed? Aside from any man with a nose and
me with half of one. Yezzan was burning with fever, squirming fitfully in a pool of his own excrement. His
shit had turned to brown slime streaked with blood  and it fell to Yollo and Penny to wipe his yellow
bottom clean. Even with assistance, their master could not lift his own weight; it took all his failing
strength to roll onto one side.
My arts will not avail here, the healer announced. The noble Yezzans life is in the hands of
the gods. Keep him cool if you can. Some say that helps. Bring him water. Those afflicted by the pale
mare were always thirsty, drinking gallons between their shits. Clean fresh water, as much as he will
drink.
Not river water, said Sweets. By no means. And with that, the healer fled.
We need to flee as well, thought Tyrion. He was a slave in a golden collar, with little bells that
tinkled cheerfully with every step he took. One of Yezzans special treasures. An honor indistinguishable
from a death warrant. Yezzan zo Qaggaz liked to keep his darlings close, so it had fallen to Yollo and
Penny and Sweets and his other treasures to attend him when he grew sick.
Poor old Yezzan. The lord of suet was not so bad as masters went. Sweets had been right about
that. Serving at his nightly banquets, Tyrion had soon learned that Yezzan stood foremost amongst
those Yunkish lords who favored honoring the peace with Meereen. Most of the others were only biding
their time, waiting for the armies of Volantis to arrive. A few wanted to assault the city immediately, lest
the Volantenes rob them of their glory and the best part of the plunder. Yezzan would have no part of
that. Nor would he consent to returning Meereens hostages by way of trebuchet, as the sellsword
Bloodbeard had proposed.
But much and more can change in two days. Two days ago Nurse had been hale and healthy.
Two days ago Yezzan had not heard the pale mares ghostly hoofbeats. Two days ago the fleets of Old
Volantis had been two days farther off. And now 
Is Yezzan going to die? Penny asked, in that please-say-it-is-not-so voice of hers.
We are all going to die.
Of the flux, I meant.
Sweets gave them both a desperate look. Yezzan must not die. The hermaphrodite stroked the
brow of their gargantuan master, pushing back his sweat-damp hair. The Yunkishman moaned, and
another flood of brown water gushed down his legs. His bedding was stained and stinking, but they had
no way to move him.
Some masters free their slaves when they die, said Penny.

Sweets tittered. It was a ghastly sound. Only favorites. They free them from the woes of the
world, to accompany their beloved master to the grave and serve him in the afterlife.
Sweets should know. His will be the first throat slit.
The goat boy spoke up. The silver queen
is dead, insisted Sweets. Forget her! The dragon took her across the river. Shes drowned in
that Dothraki sea.
You cant drown in grass, the goat boy said. If we were free, said Penny, we could find the
queen. Or go search for her, at least.
You on your dog and me on my sow, chasing a dragon across the Dothraki sea. Tyrion scratched
his scar to keep from laughing. This particular dragon has already evinced a fondness for roast pork.
And roast dwarf is twice as tasty.
It was just a wish, said Penny wistfully. We could sail away. There are ships again, now that
the war is over.
Is it? Tyrion was inclined to doubt that. Parchments had been signed, but wars were not fought
on parchments.
We could sail to Qarth, Penny went on. The streets are paved with jade there, my brother
always said. The city walls are one of the wonders of the world. When we perform in Qarth, gold and
silver will rain down on us, youll see.
Some of those ships out on the bay are Qartheen, Tyrion reminded her. Lomas Longstrider
saw the walls of Qarth. His books suffice for me. I have gone as far east as I intend to go.
Sweets dabbed at Yezzans fevered face with a damp cloth. Yezzan must live. Or we all die with
him. The pale mare does not carry off every rider. The master will recover.
That was a bald-faced lie. It would be a wonder if Yezzan lived another day. The lord of suet was
already dying from whatever hideous disease he had brought back from Sothoryos, it seemed to Tyrion.
This would just hasten his end. A mercy, really. But not the sort the dwarf craved for himself. The
healer said he needs fresh water. We will see to that.
That is good of you. Sweets sounded numb. It was more than just fear of having her throat
cut; alone amongst Yezzans treasures, she actually seemed fond of their immense master.
Penny, come with me. Tyrion opened the tent flap and ushered her out into the heat of a
Meereenese morning. The air was muggy and oppressive, yet still a welcome relief from the miasma of
sweat, shit, and sickness that filled the inside of Yezzans palatial pavilion.
Water will help the master, Penny said. Thats what the healer said, it must be so. Sweet
fresh water.

Sweet fresh water didnt help Nurse. Poor old Nurse. Yezzans soldiers had tossed him onto
the corpse wagon last night at dusk, another victim of the pale mare. When men are dying every hour,
no one looks too hard at one more dead man, especially one as well despised as Nurse. Yezzans other
slaves had refused to go near the overseer once the cramps began, so it was left to Tyrion to keep him
warm and bring him drinks. Watered wine and lemonsweet and some nice hot dogtail soup, with slivers
of mushroom in the broth. Drink it down, Nursey, that shitwater squirting from your arse needs to be
replaced. The last word Nurse ever said was, No. The last words he ever heard were, A Lannister
always pays his debts.
Tyrion had kept the truth of that from Penny, but she needed to understand how things stood
with their master. If Yezzan lives to see the sunrise, Ill be stunned.
She clutched his arm. What will happen to us?
He has heirs. Nephews. Four such had come with Yezzan from Yunkai to command his slave
soldiers. One was dead, slain by Targaryen sellswords during a sortie. The other three would divide the
yellow enormitys slaves amongst them, like as not. Whether any of the nephews shared Yezzans
fondness for cripples, freaks, and grotesques was far less certain. One of them may inherit us. Or we
could end up back on the auction block.
No. Her eyes got big. Not that. Please.
It is not a prospect I relish either.
A few yards away, six of Yezzans slave soldiers were squatting in the dust, throwing the bones
and passing a wineskin from hand to hand. One was the serjeant called Scar, a black-tempered brute
with a head as smooth as stone and the shoulders of an ox. Clever as an ox too, Tyrion recalled.
He waddled toward them. Scar, he barked out, the noble Yezzan has need of fresh, clean
water. Take two men and bring back as many pails as you can carry. And be quick about it.
The soldiers broke off their game. Scar rose to his feet, brow beetling. What did you say,
dwarf? Who do you think you are?
You know who I am. Yollo. One of our lords treasures. Now do as I told you.
The soldiers laughed. Go on, Scar, one mocked, and be quick about it. Yezzans monkey gave
you a command.
You do not tell soldiers what to do, Scar said. Soldiers? Tyrion affected puzzlement. Slaves,
is what I see. You wear a collar round your neck the same as me.
The savage backhand blow Scar dealt him knocked him to the ground and broke his lip.
Yezzans collar. Not yours.

Tyrion wiped the blood from his split lip with the back of his hand. When he tried to rise, one leg
went out from under him, and he stumbled back onto his knees. He needed Pennys help to regain his
feet. Sweets said the master must have water, he said in his best whine.
Sweets can go fuck himself. Hes made for it. We dont take commands from that freak
neither.
No, thought Tyrion. Even amongst slaves there were lords and peasants, as he had been quick to
learn. The hermaphrodite had long been their masters special pet, indulged and favored, and the noble
Yezzans other slaves hated him for it.
The soldiers were accustomed to taking their commands from their masters and their overseer.
But Nurse was dead and Yezzan too sick to name a successor. As for the three nephews, those brave
free men had remembered urgent business elsewhere at the first sound of the pale mares hooves.
The w-water, said Tyrion, cringing. Not river water, the healer said. Clean, fresh well water.
Scar grunted. You go for it. And be quick about it.
Us? Tyrion exchanged a hopeless glance with Penny. Waters heavy. Were not so strong as
you. Can we  can we take the mule cart?
Take your legs.
Well need to make a dozen trips.
Make a hundred trips. Its no shit to me.
Just the two of us  we wont be able to carry all the water that the master needs.
Take your bear, suggested Scar. Fetching water is about all that one is good for.
Tyrion backed away. As you say, master.
Scar grinned. Master. Oh, he liked that. Morgo, bring the keys. You fill the pails and come right
back, dwarf. You know what happens to slaves who try to escape.
Bring the pails, Tyrion told Penny. He went off with the man Morgo to fetch Ser Jorah
Mormont from his cage.
The knight had not adapted well to bondage. When called upon to play the bear and carry off
the maiden fair, he had been sullen and uncooperative, shuffling lifelessly through his paces when he
deigned to take part in their mummery at all. Though he had not attempted escape, nor offered violence
to his captors, he would ignore their commands oft as not or reply with muttered curses. None of this
had amused Nurse, who made his displeasure clear by confining Mormont in an iron cage and having
him beaten every evening as the sun sank into Slavers Bay. The knight absorbed the beatings silently;

the only sounds were the muttered curses of the slaves who beat him and the dull thuds of their clubs
pounding against Ser Jorahs bruised and battered flesh.
The man is a shell, Tyrion thought, the first time he saw the big knight beaten. I should have held
my tongue and let Zahrina have him. It might have been a kinder fate than this.
Mormont emerged from the cramped confines of the cage bent and squinting, with both eyes
blackened and his back crusty with dried blood. His face was so bruised and swollen that he hardly
looked human. He was naked except for a breechclout, a filthy bit of yellow rag. Youre to help them
carry water, Morgo told him.
Ser Jorahs only reply was a sullen stare. Some men would sooner die free than live a slave, I
suppose. Tyrion was not stricken with that affliction himself, thankfully, but if Mormont murdered
Morgo, the other slaves might not draw that distinction. Come, he said, before the knight did
something brave and stupid. He waddled off and hoped Mormont would follow.
The gods were good for once. Mormont followed.
Two pails for Penny, two for Tyrion, and four for Ser Jorah, two in either hand. The nearest well
was south and west of the Harridan, so they set off in that direction, the bells on their collars ringing
merrily with every step. No one paid them any mind. They were just slaves fetching water for their
master. Wearing a collar conferred certain advantages, particularly a gilded collar inscribed with the
name of Yezzan zo Qaggaz. The chime of those little bells proclaimed their value to anyone with ears. A
slave was only as important as his master; Yezzan was the richest man in the Yellow City and had
brought six hundred slave soldiers to the war, even if he did look like a monstrous yellow slug and smell
of piss. Their collars gave them leave to go anywhere they might wish within the camp.
Until Yezzan dies.
The Clanker Lords had their slave soldiers drilling in the nearest field. The clatter of the chains
that bound them made a harsh metallic music as they marched across the sand in lockstep and formed
up with their long spears. Elsewhere teams of slaves were raising ramps of stone and sand beneath their
mangonels and scorpions, angling them upward at the sky, the better to defend the camp should the
black dragon return. It made the dwarf smile to see them sweating and cursing as they wrestled the
heavy machines onto the inclines. Crossbows were much in evidence as well. Every other man seemed
to be clutching one, with a quiverfull of bolts hanging from his hip.
If anyone had thought to ask him, Tyrion could have told them not to bother. Unless one of
those long iron scorpion bolts chanced to find an eye, the queens pet monster was not like to be
brought down by such toys. Dragons are not so easy to kill as that. Tickle him with these and youll only
make him angry.
The eyes were where a dragon was most vulnerable. The eyes, and the brain behind them. Not
the underbelly, as certain old tales would have it. The scales there were just as tough as those along a
dragons back and flanks. And not down the gullet either. That was madness. These would-be

dragonslayers might as well try to quench a fire with a spear thrust. Death comes out of the dragons
mouth, Septon Barth had written in his Unnatural History, but death does not go in that way.
Farther on, two legions from New Ghis were facing off shield wall to shield wall whilst serjeants
in iron halfhelms with horsehair crests screamed commands in their own incomprehensible dialect. To
the naked eye the Ghiscari looked more formidable than the Yunkish slave soldiers, but Tyrion nursed
doubts. The legionaries might be armed and organized in the same manner as Unsullied  but the
eunuchs knew no other life, whereas the Ghiscari were free citizens who served for three-year terms.
The line at the well stretched back a quarter mile.
There were only a handful of wells within a days march of Meereen, so the wait was always
long. Most of the Yunkish host drew their drinking water from the Skahazadhan, which Tyrion had
known was a very bad idea even before the healers warning. The clever ones took care to stay
upstream of the latrines, but they were still downstream of the city.
The fact that there were any good wells at all within a days march of the city only went to prove
that Daenerys Targaryen was still an innocent where siegecraft was concerned. She should have
poisoned every well. Then all the Yunkishmen would be drinking from the river. See how long their siege
lasts then. That was what his lord father would have done, Tyrion did not doubt.
Every time they shuffled forward another place, the bells on their collars tinkled brightly. Such a
happy sound, it makes me want to scoop out someones eyeballs with a spoon. By now Griff and Duck
and Haldon Half-maester should be in Westeros with their young prince. I should be with them  but no,
I had to have a whore. Kinslaying was not enough, I needed cunt and wine to seal my ruin, and here I am
on the wrong side of the world, wearing a slave collar with little golden bells to announce my coming. If I
dance just right, maybe I can ring The Rains of Castamere.
There was no better place to hear the latest news and rumors than around the well. I know
what I saw, an old slave in a rusted iron collar was saying, as Tyrion and Penny shuffled along in the
queue, and I saw that dragon ripping off arms and legs, tearing men in half, burning them down to ash
and bones. People started running, trying to get out of that pit, but I come to see a show, and by all the
gods of Ghis, I saw one. I was up in the purple, so I didnt think the dragon was like to trouble me.
The queen climbed onto the dragons back and flew away, insisted a tall brown woman.
She tried, said the old man, but she couldnt hold on. The cross-bows wounded the dragon,
and the queen was struck right between her sweet pink teats, I hear. That was when she fell. She died in
the gutter, crushed beneath a wagons wheels. I know a girl who knows a man who saw her die.
In this company, silence was the better part of wisdom, but Tyrion could not help himself. No
corpse was found, he said.
The old man frowned. What would you know about it?

They were there, said the brown woman. Its them, the jousting dwarfs, the ones who tilted
for the queen.
The old man squinted down as if seeing him and Penny for the first time. Youre the ones who
rode the pigs.
Our notoriety precedes us. Tyrion sketched a courtly bow, and refrained from pointing out that
one of the pigs was really a dog. The sow I ride is actually my sister. We have the same nose, could you
tell? A wizard cast a spell on her, but if you give her a big wet kiss, she will turn into a beautiful woman.
The pity is, once you get to know her, youll want to kiss her again to turn her back.
Laughter erupted all around them. Even the old man joined in. You saw her, then, said the
redheaded boy behind them. You saw the queen. Is she as beautiful as they say?
I saw a slender girl with silvery hair wrapped in a tokar, he might have told them. Her face was
veiled, and I never got close enough for a good look. I was riding on a pig. Daenerys Targaryen had been
seated in the owners box beside her Ghiscari king, but Tyrions eyes had been drawn to the knight in
the white-and-gold armor behind her. Though his features were concealed, the dwarf would have
known Barristan Selmy anywhere. Illyrio was right about that much, at least, he remembered thinking.
Will Selmy know me, though? And what will he do if he does?
He had almost revealed himself then and there, but something stopped himcaution,
cowardice, instinct, call it what you will. He could not imagine Barristan the Bold greeting him with
anything but hostility. Selmy had never approved of Jaimes presence in his precious Kingsguard. Before
the rebellion, the old knight thought him too young and untried; afterward, he had been known to say
that the Kingslayer should exchange that white cloak for a black one. And his own crimes were worse.
Jaime had killed a madman. Tyrion had put a quarrel through the groin of his own sire, a man Ser
Barristan had known and served for years. He might have chanced it all the same, but then Penny had
landed a blow on his shield and the moment was gone, never to return.
The queen watched us tilt, Penny was telling the other slaves in line, but that was the only
time we saw her.
You must have seen the dragon, said the old man.
Would that we had. The gods had not even vouchsafed him that much. As Daenerys Targaryen
was taking wing, Nurse had been clapping irons round their ankles to make certain they would not
attempt escape on their way back to their master. If the overseer had only taken his leave after
delivering them to the abbatoir, or fled with the rest of the slavers when the dragon descended from the
sky, the two dwarfs might have strolled away free. Or run away, more like, our little bells a-jingle.
Was there a dragon? Tyrion said with a shrug. All I know is that no dead queens were found.

The old man was not convinced. Ah, they found corpses by the hundred. They dragged them
inside the pit and burned them, though half was crisp already. Might be they didnt know her, burned
and bloody and crushed. Might be they did but decided to say elsewise, to keep you slaves quiet.
Us slaves? said the brown woman. You wear a collar too.
Ghazdors collar, the old man boasted. Known him since we was born. Im almost like a
brother to him. Slaves like you, sweepings out of Astapor and Yunkai, you whine about being free, but I
wouldnt give the dragon queen my collar if she offered to suck my cock for it. Man has the right master,
thats better.
Tyrion did not dispute him. The most insidious thing about bondage was how easy it was to
grow accustomed to it. The life of most slaves was not all that different from the life of a serving man at
Casterly Rock, it seemed to him. True, some slaveowners and their overseers were brutal and cruel, but
the same was true of some Westerosi lords and their stewards and bailiffs. Most of the Yunkaii treated
their chattels decently enough, so long as they did their jobs and caused no trouble  and this old man
in his rusted collar, with his fierce loyalty to Lord Wobblecheeks, his owner, was not at all atypical.
Ghazdor the Great-hearted? Tyrion said, sweetly. Our master Yezzan has often spoken of his
wits. What Yezzan had actually said was on the order of, I have more wits in the left cheek of my arse
than Ghazdor and his brothers have between them. He thought it prudent to omit the actual words.
Midday had come and gone before he and Penny reached the well, where a scrawny one-legged
slave was drawing water. He squinted at them suspiciously. Nurse always comes for Yezzans water,
with four men and a mule cart. He dropped the bucket down the well once more. There was a soft
splash. The one-legged man let the bucket fill, then began to draw it upward. His arms were sunburnt
and peeling, scrawny to look at but all muscle.
The mule died, said Tyrion. So did Nurse, poor man. And now Yezzan himself has mounted
the pale mare, and six of his soldiers have the shits. May I have two pails full?
As you like. That was the end of idle talk. Is that hoofbeats you hear? The lie about the soldiers
got old one-leg moving much more quickly.
They started back, each of the dwarfs carrying two brim-full pails of sweet water and Ser Jorah
with two pails in each hand. The day was growing hotter, the air as thick and wet as damp wool, and the
pails seemed to grow heavier with every step. A long walk on short legs. Water sloshed from his pails
with every stride, splashing round his legs, whilst his bells played a marching song. Had I known it would
come to this, Father, I might have let you live. Half a mile east, a dark plume of smoke was rising where a
tent had been set afire. Burning last nights dead. This way, Tyrion said, jerking his head to the right.
Penny gave him a puzzled look. Thats not how we came.
We dont want to breathe that smoke. Its full of malign humors. It was not a lie. Not entirely.

Penny was soon puffing, struggling with the weight of her pails. I need to rest.
As you wish. Tyrion set the pails of water on the ground, grateful for the halt. His legs were
cramping badly, so he found himself a likely rock and sat on it to rub his thighs.
I could do that for you, offered Penny. I know where the knots are. As fond as he had grown
of the girl, it still made him uncomfortable when she touched him. He turned to Ser Jorah. A few more
beatings and youll be uglier than I am, Mormont. Tell me, is there any fight left in you?
The big knight raised two blackened eyes and looked at him as he might look at a bug. Enough
to crack your neck, Imp.
Good. Tyrion picked up his pails. This way, then.
Penny wrinkled her brow. No. Its to the left. She pointed. Thats the Harridan there.
And thats the Wicked Sister. Tyrion nodded in the other direction. Trust me, he said. My
way is quicker. He set off, his bells jingling. Penny would follow, he knew.
Sometimes he envied the girl all her pretty little dreams. She reminded him of Sansa Stark, the
child bride he had wed and lost. Despite the horrors Penny had suffered, she remained somehow
trusting. She should know better. She is older than Sansa. And shes a dwarf. She acts as if she has
forgotten that, as if she were highborn and fair to look upon, instead of a slave in a grotesquerie. At
night Tyrion would oft hear her praying. A waste of words. If there are gods to listen, they are monstrous
gods who torment us for their sport. Who else would make a world like this, so full of bondage, blood,
and pain? Who else would shape us as they have? Some-times he wanted to slap her, shake her, scream
at her, anything to wake her from her dreams. No one is going to save us, he wanted to scream at her.
The worst is yet to come. Yet somehow he could never say the words. Instead of giving her a good hard
crack across that ugly face of hers to knock the blinders from her eyes, he would find himself squeezing
her shoulder or giving her a hug. Every touch a lie. I have paid her so much false coin that she half thinks
shes rich.
He had even kept the truth of Daznaks Pit from her.
Lions. They were going to set lions on us. It would have been exquisitely ironic, that. Perhaps he
would have had time for a short, bitter chortle before being torn apart.
No one ever told him the end that had been planned for them, not in so many words, but it had
not been hard to puzzle out, down beneath the bricks of Daznaks Pit, in the hidden world below the
seats, the dark domain of the pit fighters and the serving men who tended to them, quick and
deadthe cooks who fed them, the ironmongers who armed them, the barber-surgeons who bled them
and shaved them and bound up their wounds, the whores who serviced them before and after fights,
the corpse handlers who dragged the losers off the sands with chains and iron hooks.

Nurses face had given Tyrion his first inkling. After their show, he and Penny had returned to
the torchlit vault where the fighters gathered before and after their matches. Some sat sharpening their
weapons; others sacrificed to queer gods, or dulled their nerves with milk of the poppy before going out
to die. Those whod fought and won were dicing in a corner, laughing as only men who have just faced
death and lived can laugh.
Nurse was paying out some silver to a pit man on a lost wager when he spied Penny leading
Crunch. The confusion in his eyes was gone in half a heartbeat, but not before Tyrion grasped what it
meant. Nurse did not expect us back. He had looked around at other faces. None of them expected us
back. We were meant to die out there. The final piece fell into place when he overheard an animal
trainer complaining loudly to the pitmaster. The lions are hungry. Two days since they ate. I was told
not to feed them, and I havent. The queen should pay for meat.
You take that up with her the next time she holds court, the pitmaster threw back at him.
Even now, Penny did not suspect. When she spoke about the pit, her chief worry was that more
people had not laughed. They would have pissed themselves laughing if the lions had been loosed, Tyrion
almost told her. Instead hed squeezed her shoulder.
Penny came to a sudden halt. Were going the wrong way.
Were not. Tyrion lowered his pails to the ground. The handles had gouged deep grooves in
his fingers. Those are the tents we want, there.
The Second Sons? A queer smile split Ser Jorahs face. If you think to find help there, you
dont know Brown Ben Plumm.
Oh, I do. Plumm and I have played five games of cyvasse. Brown Ben is shrewd, tenacious, not
unintelligent  but wary. He likes to let his opponent take the risks whilst he sits back and keeps his
options open, reacting to the battle as it takes shape.
Battle? What battle? Penny backed away from him. We have to get back. The master needs
clean water. If we take too long, well be whipped. And Pretty Pig and Crunch are there.
Sweets will see that they are taken care of, Tyrion lied. More like, Scar and his friends would
soon be feasting on ham and bacon and a savory dog stew, but Penny did not need to hear that. Nurse
is dead and Yezzans dying. It could be dark before anyone thinks to miss us. We will never have a better
chance than now.
No. You know what they do when they catch slaves trying to escape. You know. Please. Theyll
never let us leave the camp.
We havent left the camp. Tyrion picked up his pails. He set off at a brisk waddle, never
looking back. Mormont fell in beside him. After a moment he heard the sounds of Penny hurrying after
him, down a sandy slope to a circle of ragged tents.

The first guard appeared as they neared the horse lines, a lean spear-man whose maroon beard
marked him as Tyroshi. What do we have here? And what have you got in those pails?
Water, said Tyrion, if it please you.
Beer would please me better. A spearpoint pricked him in the backa second guard, come up
behind them. Tyrion could hear Kings Landing in his voice. Scum from Flea Bottom. You lost, dwarf?
the guard demanded.
Were here to join your company.
A pail slipped from Pennys grasp and overturned. Half the water had spilled before she could
right it once again.
We got fools enough in this company. Why would we want three more? The Tyroshi flicked at
Tyrions collar with his spearpoint, ringing the little golden bell. A runaway slave is what I see. Three
runaway slaves. Whose collar?
The Yellow Whales. That from a third man, drawn by their voicesa skinny stubble-jawed
piece of work with teeth stained red from sourleaf. A serjeant, Tyrion knew, from the way the other two
deferred to him. He had a hook where his right hand should have been. Bronns meaner bastard
shadow, or Im Baelor the Beloved. These are the dwarfs Ben tried to buy, the serjeant told the
spearmen, squinting, but the big one  best bring him too. All three.
The Tyroshi gestured with his spear. Tyrion moved along. The other sell sworda stripling,
hardly more than a boy, with fuzz on his cheeks and hair the color of dirty strawscooped up Penny
under one arm. Ooh, mine has teats, he said, laughing. He slipped a hand under Pennys tunic, just to
be sure.
Just bring her, snapped the serjeant.
The stripling slung Penny over one shoulder. Tyrion went ahead as quick as his stunted legs
would allow. He knew where they were going: the big tent on the far side of the fire pit, its painted
canvas walls cracked and faded by years of sun and rain. A few sellswords turned to watch them pass,
and a camp follower sniggered, but no one moved to interfere.
Within the tent, they found camp stools and a trestle table, a rack of spears and halberds, a
floor covered with threadbare carpets in half a dozen clashing colors, and three officers. One was slim
and elegant, with a pointed beard, a bravos blade, and a slashed pink doublet. One was plump and
balding, with ink stains on his fingers and a quill clutched in one hand.
The third was the man he sought. Tyrion bowed. Captain.
We caught them creeping into camp. The stripling dumped Penny onto the carpet.
Runaways, the Tyroshi declared. With pails.

Pails? said Brown Ben Plumm. When no one ventured to explain, he said, Back to your posts,
boys. And not a word o this, to anyone. When they were gone, he smiled at Tyrion. Come for another
game of cyvasse, Yollo?
If you wish. I do enjoy defeating you. I hear youre twice a turncloak, Plumm. A man after mine
own heart.
Brown Bens smile never reached his eyes. He studied Tyrion as a man might study a talking
snake. Why are you here?
To make your dreams come true. You tried to buy us at auction. Then you tried to win us at
cyvasse. Even when I had my nose, I was not so handsome as to provoke such passion  save in one who
happened to know my true worth. Well, here I am, free for the taking. Now be a friend, send for your
smith, and get these collars off us. Im sick of tinkling when I tinkle.
I want no trouble with your noble master.
Yezzan has more urgent matters to concern him than three missing slaves. Hes riding the pale
mare. And why should they think to look for us here? You have swords enough to discourage anyone
who comes nosing round. A small risk for a great gain.
The jackanapes in the slashed pink doublet hissed. Theyve brought the sickness amongst us.
Into our very tents. He turned to Ben Plumm. Shall I cut his head off, Captain? We can toss the rest in
a latrine pit. He drew a sword, a slender bravos blade with a jeweled hilt.
Do be careful with my head, said Tyrion. You dont want to get any of my blood on you. Blood
carries the disease. And youll want to boil our clothes, or burn them.
Ive a mind to burn them with you still in them, Yollo.
That is not my name. But you know that. You have known that since you first set eyes on me.
Might be.
I know you as well, my lord, said Tyrion. Youre less purple and more brown than the Plumms
at home, but unless your names a lie, youre a westerman, by blood if not by birth. House Plumm is
sworn to Casterly Rock, and as it happens I know a bit of its history. Your branch sprouted from a stone
spit across the narrow sea, no doubt. A younger son of Viserys Plumm, Id wager. The queens dragons
were fond of you, were they not?
That seemed to amuse the sellsword. Who told you that?
No one. Most of the stories you hear about dragons are fodder for fools. Talking dragons,
dragons hoarding gold and gems, dragons with four legs and bellies big as elephants, dragons riddling
with sphinxes  nonsense, all of it. But there are truths in the old books as well. Not only do I know that
the queens dragons took to you, but I know why.

My mother said my father had a drop of dragon blood.
Two drops. That, or a cock six feet long. You know that tale? I do. Now, youre a clever Plumm,
so you know this head of mine is worth a lordship  back in Westeros, half a world away. By the time
you get it there, only bone and maggots will remain. My sweet sister will deny the head is mine and
cheat you of the promised reward. You know how it is with queens. Fickle cunts, the lot of them, and
Cersei is the worst.
Brown Ben scratched at his beard. Could deliver you alive and wriggling, then. Or pop your
head into a jar and pickle it.
Or throw in with me. Thats the wisest move. He grinned. I was born a second son. This
company is my destiny. 
The Second Sons have no place for mummers, the bravo in pink said scornfully. Its fighters
we need.
Ive brought you one. Tyrion jerked a thumb at Mormont. That creature? The bravo laughed.
An ugly brute, but scars alone dont make a Second Son.
Tyrion rolled his mismatched eyes. Lord Plumm, who are these two friends of yours? The pink
one is annoying.
The bravo curled a lip, whilst the fellow with the quill chuckled at his insolence. But it was Jorah
Mormont who supplied their names. Inkpots is the company paymaster. The peacock calls himself
Kasporio the Cunning, though Kasporio the Cunt would be more apt. A nasty piece of work.
Mormonts face might have been unrecognizable in its battered state, but his voice was
unchanged. Kasporio gave him a startled look, whilst the wrinkles around Plumms eyes crinkled in
amusement. Jorah Mormont? Is that you? Less proud than when you scampered off, though. Must we
still call you ser?
Ser Jorahs swollen lips twisted into a grotesque grin. Give me a sword and you can call me
what you like, Ben.
Kasporio edged backward. You  she sent you away 
I came back. Call me a fool.
A fool in love. Tyrion cleared his throat. You can talk of old times later  after I am done
explaining why my head would be of more use to you upon my shoulders. You will find, Lord Plumm,
that I can be very generous to my friends. If you doubt me, ask Bronn. Ask Shagga, son of Dolf. Ask
Timett, son of Timett.

And who would they be? asked the man called Inkpots. Good men who pledged me their
swords and prospered greatly by that service. He shrugged. Oh, very well, I lied about the good part.
Theyre bloodthirsty bastards, like you lot.
Might be, said Brown Ben. Or might be you just made up some names. Shagga, did you say?
Is that a womans name?
His teats are big enough. Next time we meet Ill peek beneath his breeches to be sure. Is that a
cyvasse set over there? Bring it out and well have that game. But first, I think, a cup of wine. My throat
is dry as an old bone, and I can see that I have a deal of talking to do.
JON
That night he dreamt of wildlings howling from the woods, advancing to the moan of warhorns
and the roll of drums. Boom DOOM boom DOOM boom DOOM came the sound, a thousand hearts with
a single beat. Some had spears and some had bows and some had axes. Others rode on chariots made of
bones, drawn by teams of dogs as big as ponies. Giants lumbered amongst them, forty feet tall, with
mauls the size of oak trees.
Stand fast, Jon Snow called. Throw them back. He stood atop the Wall, alone. Flame, he
cried, feed them flame, but there was no one to pay heed.
They are all gone. They have abandoned me.
Burning shafts hissed upward, trailing tongues of fire. Scarecrow brothers tumbled down, black
cloaks ablaze. Snow, an eagle cried, as foemen scuttled up the ice like spiders. Jon was armored in
black ice, but his blade burned red in his fist. As the dead men reached the top of the Wall he sent them
down to die again. He slew a greybeard and a beardless boy, a giant, a gaunt man with filed teeth, a girl
with thick red hair. Too late he recognized Ygritte. She was gone as quick as shed appeared.
The world dissolved into a red mist. Jon stabbed and slashed and cut. He hacked down Donal
Noye and gutted Deaf Dick Follard. Qhorin Halfhand stumbled to his knees, trying in vain to staunch the
flow of blood from his neck. I am the Lord of Winterfell, Jon screamed. It was Robb before him now,
his hair wet with melting snow. Longclaw took his head off. Then a gnarled hand seized Jon roughly by
the shoulder. He whirled 
 and woke with a raven pecking at his chest. Snow, the bird cried. Jon swatted at it. The
raven shrieked its displeasure and flapped up to a bedpost to glare down balefully at him through the
predawn gloom.
The day had come. It was the hour of the wolf. Soon enough the sun would rise, and four
thousand wildlings would come pouring through the Wall. Madness. Jon Snow ran his burned hand

through his hair and wondered once again what he was doing. Once the gate was opened there would
be no turning back. It should have been the Old Bear to treat with Tormund. It should have been Jaremy
Rykker or Qhorin Halfhand or Denys Mallister or some other seasoned man. It should have been my
uncle. It was too late for such misgivings, though. Every choice had its risks, every choice its
consequences. He would play the game to its conclusion.
He rose and dressed in darkness, as Mormonts raven muttered across the room. Corn, the
bird said, and, King, and, Snow, Jon Snow, Jon Snow. That was queer. The bird had never said his full
name before, as best Jon could recall.
He broke his fast in the cellar with his officers. Fried bread, fried eggs, blood sausages, and
barley porridge made up the meal, washed down with thin yellow beer. As they ate they went over the
preparations yet again. All is in readiness, Bowen Marsh assured him. If the wildlings uphold the
terms of the bargain, all will go as youve commanded.
And if not, it may turn to blood and carnage. Remember, Jon said, Tormunds people are
hungry, cold, and fearful. Some of them hate us as much as some of you hate them. We are dancing on
rotten ice here, them and us. One crack, and we all drown. If blood should be shed today, it had best not
be one of us who strikes the first blow, or I swear by the old gods and the new that I will have the head
of the man who strikes it.
They answered him with ayes and nods and muttered words, with As you command, and It
will be done, and Yes, my lord. And one by one they rose and buckled on their swords and donned
their warm black cloaks and strode out into the cold.
Last to leave the table was Dolorous Edd Tollett, who had come in during the night with six
wagons from the Long Barrow. Whores Barrow, the black brothers called the fortress now. Edd had
been sent to gather up as many spearwives as his wagons would hold and bring them back to join their
sisters.
Jon watched him mop up a runny yolk with a chunk of bread. It was strangely comforting to see
Edds dour face again. How goes the restoration work? he asked his old steward.
Ten more years should do it, Tollett replied in his usual gloomy tone. Place was overrun with
rats when we moved in. The spearwives killed the nasty buggers. Now the place is overrun with
spearwives. Theres days I want the rats back.
How do you find serving under Iron Emmett? Jon asked. Mostly its Black Maris serving under
him, mlord. Me, I have the mules. Nettles claims were kin. Its true we have the same long face, but Im
not near as stubborn. Anyway I never knew their mothers, on my honor. He finished the last of his eggs
and sighed. I do like me a nice runny egg. If it please mlord, dont let the wildlings eat all our chickens.
Out in the yard, the eastern sky had just begun to lighten. There was not a wisp of cloud in sight.
We have a good day for this, it would seem, Jon said. A bright day, warm and sunny.

The Wall will weep. And winter almost on us. Its unnatural, mlord. A bad sign, you ask me.
Jon smiled. And if it were to snow?
A worse sign.
What sort of weather would you prefer?
The sort they keep indoors, said Dolorous Edd. If it please mlord, I should get back to my
mules. They miss me when Im gone. More than I can say for them spearwives.
They parted there, Tollett for the east road, where his wagons waited, Jon Snow for the stables.
Satin had his horse saddled and bridled and waiting for him, a fiery grey courser with a mane as black
and shiny as maesters ink. He was not the sort of mount that Jon would have chosen for a ranging, but
on this morning all that mattered was that he look impressive, and for that the stallion was a perfect
choice.
His tail was waiting too. Jon had never liked surrounding himself with guards, but today it
seemed prudent to keep a few good men beside him. They made a grim display in their ringmail, iron
halfhelms, and black cloaks, with tall spears in their hands and swords and daggers on their belts. For
this Jon had passed over all the green boys and greybeards in his command, choosing eight men in their
prime: Ty and Mully, Left Hand Lew, Big Liddle, Rory, Fulk the Flea, Garrett Greenspear. And Leathers,
Castle Blacks new master-at-arms, to show the free folk that even a man who had fought for Mance in
the battle beneath the Wall could find a place of honor in the Nights Watch.
A deep red blush had appeared in the east by the time they all assembled at the gate. The stars
are going out, Jon thought. When next they reappeared, they would be shining down upon a world
forever changed. A few queens men stood watching from beside the embers of Lady Melisandres
nightfire. When Jon glanced at the Kings Tower, he glimpsed a flash of red behind a window. Of Queen
Selyse he saw no sign.
It was time. Open the gate, Jon Snow said softly.
OPEN THE GATE! Big Liddle roared. His voice was thunder. Seven hundred feet above, the
sentries heard and raised their warhorns to their lips. The sound rang out, echoing off the Wall and out
across the world. Ahoooooooooooooooooooooooooooooo. One long blast. For a thousand years or
more, that sound had meant rangers coming home. Today it meant something else. Today it called the
free folk to their new homes.
On either end of the long tunnel, gates swung open and iron bars unlocked. Dawn light
shimmered on the ice above, pink and gold and purple. Dolorous Edd had not been wrong. The Wall
would soon be weeping. Gods grant it weeps alone.
Satin led them underneath the ice, lighting the way through the gloom of the tunnel with an
iron lantern. Jon followed, leading his horse. Then his guardsmen. After them came Bowen Marsh and

his stewards, a score of them, every man assigned a task. Above, Ulmer of the Kingswood had the Wall.
Two score of Castle Blacks best bowmen stood with him, ready to respond to any trouble down below
with a rain of arrows.
North of the Wall, Tormund Giantsbane was waiting, mounted on a runty little garron that
looked far too weedy to support his weight. His two remaining sons were with him, tall Toregg and
young Dryn, along with three score warriors.
Har! Tormund called. Guards, is it? Now wheres the trust in that, crow?
You brought more men than I did.
So I did. Come here by me, lad. I want my folk to see you. I got thousands neer saw a lord
commander, grown men who were told as boys that your rangers would eat them if they didnt behave.
They need to see you plain, a long-faced lad in an old black cloak. They need to learn that the Nights
Watch is naught tbe feared.
That is a lesson I would sooner they never learned. Jon peeled the glove off his burned hand, put
two fingers in his mouth, and whistled. Ghost came racing from the gate. Tormunds horse shied so hard
that the wild-ling almost lost his saddle. Naught to be feared? Jon said. Ghost, stay.
You are a black-hearted bastard, Lord Crow. Tormund Horn-Blower lifted his own warhorn to
his lips. The sound of it echoed off the ice like rolling thunder, and the first of the free folk began to
stream toward the gate.
From dawn till dusk Jon watched the wildlings pass.
The hostages went firstone hundred boys between the ages of eight and sixteen. Your blood
price, Lord Crow, Tormund declared. I hope the wailing o their poor mothers dont haunt your dreams
at night. Some of the boys were led to the gate by a mother or a father, others by older siblings. More
came alone. Fourteenand fifteen-year-old boys were almost men, and did not want to be seen clinging
to a womans skirts.
Two stewards counted the boys as they went by, noting each name on long sheepskin scrolls. A
third collected their valuables for the toll and wrote that down as well. The boys were going to a place
that none had ever been before, to serve an order that had been the enemy of their kith and kin for
thousands of years, yet Jon saw no tears, heard no wailing mothers. These are winters people, he
reminded himself. Tears freeze upon your cheeks where they come from. Not a single hostage balked or
tried to slink away when his turn came to enter that gloomy tunnel.
Almost all the boys were thin, some past the point of gauntness, with spindly shanks and arms
like twigs. That was no more than Jon expected. Elsewise they came in every shape and size and color.
He saw tall boys and short boys, brown-haired boys and black-haired boys, honey blonds and strawberry
blonds and redheads kissed by fire, like Ygritte. He saw boys with scars, boys with limps, boys with
pockmarked faces. Many of the older boys had downy cheeks or wispy little mustachios, but there was

one fellow with a beard as thick as Tormunds. Some dressed in fine soft furs, some in boiled leather and
oddments of armor, more in wool and seal-skins, a few in rags. One was naked. Many had weapons:
sharpened spears, stone-headed mauls, knives made of bone or stone or dragonglass, spiked clubs,
tanglenets, even here and there a rust-eaten old sword. The Hornfoot boys walked blithe and barefoot
through the snowdrifts. Other lads had bear-paws on their boots and walked on top of the same drifts,
never sinking through the crust. Six boys arrived on horses, two on mules. A pair of brothers turned up
with a goat. The biggest hostage was six-and-a-half feet tall but had a babys face; the smallest was a
runty boy who claimed nine years but looked no more than six.
Of special note were the sons of men of renown. Tormund took care to point them out as they
went by. The boy there is the son of Soren Shieldbreaker, he said of one tall lad. Him with the red
hair, hes Gerrick Kingsbloods get. Comes o the line o Raymun Redbeard, to hear him tell it. The line o
Redbeards little brother, you want it true. Two boys looked enough alike to be twins, but Tormund
insisted they were cousins, born a year apart. One was sired by Harle the Huntsman, tother by Harle
the Handsome, both on the same woman. Fathers hate each other. I was you, Id send one to Eastwatch
and tother to your Shadow Tower.
Other hostages were named as sons of Howd Wanderer, of Brogg, of Devyn Sealskinner, Kyleg of
the Wooden Ear, Morna White Mask, the Great Walrus 
The Great Walrus? Truly?
They have queer names along the Frozen Shore.
Three hostages were sons of Alfyn Crowkiller, an infamous raider slain by Qhorin Halfhand. Or
so Tormund insisted. They do not look like brothers, Jon observed.
Half-brothers, born o different mothers. Alfyns member was a wee thing, even smaller than
yours, but he was never shy with where he stuck it. Had a son in every village, that one.
Of a certain runty rat-faced boy, Tormund said, That ones a whelp of Varamyr Sixskins. You
remember Varamyr, Lord Crow?
He did. The skinchanger.
Aye, he was that. A vicious little runt besides. Dead now, like as not. No ones seen him since
the battle.
Two of the boys were girls in disguise. When Jon saw them, he dispatched Rory and Big Liddle to
bring them to him. One came meekly enough, the other kicking and biting. This could end badly. Do
these two have famous fathers?
Har! Them skinny things? Not likely. Picked by lot.
Theyre girls.

Are they? Tormund squinted at the pair of them from his saddle. Me and Lord Crow made a
wager on which o you has the biggest member. Pull them breeches down, give us a look.
One of the girls turned red. The other glared defiantly. You leave us alone, Tormund Giantstink.
You let us go.
Har! You win, crow. Not a cock between em. The little ones got her a set o balls, though. A
spearwife in the making, her. He called to his own men. Go find them something girly to put on before
Lord Snow wets his smallclothes.
Ill need two boys to take their places.
Hows that? Tormund scratched his beard. A hostage is a hostage, seems to me. That big
sharp sword o yours can snick a girls head off as easy as a boys. A father loves his daughters too. Well,
most fathers.
It is not their fathers who concern me. Did Mance ever sing of Brave Danny Flint?
Not as I recall. Who was he?
A girl who dressed up like a boy to take the black. Her song is sad and pretty. What happened
to her wasnt. In some versions of the song, her ghost still walked the Nightfort. Ill send the girls to
Long Barrow. The only men there were Iron Emmett and Dolorous Edd, both of whom he trusted. That
was not something he could say of all his brothers.
The wildling understood. Nasty birds, you crows. He spat. Two more boys, then. Youll have
them.
When nine-and-ninety hostages had shuffled by them to pass beneath the Wall, Tormund
Giantsbane produced the last one. My son Dryn. Youll see hes well taken care of, crow, or Ill cook
your black liver up and eat it.
Jon gave the boy a close inspection. Brans age, or the age he would have been if Theon had not
killed him. Dryn had none of Brans sweetness, though. He was a chunky boy, with short legs, thick arms,
and a wide red facea miniature version of his father, with a shock of dark brown hair. Hell serve as
my own page, Jon promised Tormund.
Hear that, Dryn? See that you dont get above yourself. To Jon he said, Hell need a good
beating from time to time. Be careful o his teeth, though. He bites. He reached down for his horn
again, raised it, and blew another blast.
This time it was warriors who came forward. And not just one hundred of them. Five hundred,
Jon Snow judged, as they moved out from beneath the trees, perhaps as many as a thousand. One in
every ten of them came mounted but all of them came armed. Across their backs they bore round
wicker shields covered with hides and boiled leather, displaying painted images of snakes and spiders,
severed heads, bloody hammers, broken skulls, and demons. A few were clad in stolen steel, dinted

oddments of armor looted from the corpses of fallen rangers. Others had armored themselves in bones,
like Rattleshirt. All wore fur and leather.
There were spearwives with them, long hair streaming. Jon could not look at them without
remembering Ygritte: the gleam of fire in her hair, the look on her face when shed disrobed for him in
the grotto, the sound of her voice. You know nothing, Jon Snow, shed told him a hundred times.
It is as true now as it was then. You might have sent the women first, he said to Tormund.
The mothers and the maids.
The wildling gave him a shrewd look. Aye, I might have. And you crows might decide to close
that gate. A few fighters on tother side, well, that way the gate stays open, dont it? He grinned. I
bought your bloody horse, Jon Snow. Dont mean that we cant count his teeth. Now dont you go
thinking me and mine dont trust you. We trust you just as much as you trust us. He snorted. You
wanted warriors, didnt you? Well, there they are. Every one worth six o your black crows.
Jon had to smile. So long as they save those weapons for our common foe, I am content.
Gave you my word on it, didnt I? The word of Tormund Giantsbane. Strong as iron, tis. He
turned and spat.
Amongst the stream of warriors were the fathers of many of Jons hostages. Some stared with
cold dead eyes as they went by, fingering their sword hilts. Others smiled at him like long-lost kin,
though a few of those smiles discomfited Jon Snow more than any glare. None knelt, but many gave him
their oaths. What Tormund swore, I swear, declared black-haired Brogg, a man of few words. Soren
Shieldbreaker bowed his head an inch and growled, Sorens axe is yours, Jon Snow, if ever you have
need of such. Red-bearded Gerrick Kingsblood brought three daughters. They will make fine wives,
and give their husbands strong sons of royal blood, he boasted. Like their father, they are descended
from Raymun Redbeard, who was King-Beyond-the-Wall.
Blood meant little and less amongst the free folk, Jon knew. Ygritte had taught him that.
Gerricks daughters shared her same flame-red hair, though hers had been a tangle of curls and theirs
hung long and straight. Kissed by fire. Three princesses, each lovelier than the last, he told their father.
I will see that they are presented to the queen. Selyse Baratheon would take to these three better
than she had to Val, he suspected; they were younger and considerably more cowed. Sweet enough to
look at them, though their father seems a fool.
Howd Wanderer swore his oath upon his sword, as nicked and pitted a piece of iron as Jon had
ever seen. Devyn Sealskinner presented him with a sealskin hat, Harle the Huntsman with a bear-claw
necklace. The warrior witch Morna removed her weirwood mask just long enough to kiss his gloved
hand and swear to be his man or his woman, whichever he preferred. And on and on and on.
As they passed, each warrior stripped off his treasures and tossed them into one of the carts
that the stewards had placed before the gate. Amber pendants, golden torques, jeweled daggers, silver
brooches set with gem-stones, bracelets, rings, niello cups and golden goblets, warhorns and drinking

horns, a green jade comb, a necklace of freshwater pearls  all yielded up and noted down by Bowen
Marsh. One man surrendered a shirt of silver scales that had surely been made for some great lord.
Another produced a broken sword with three sapphires in the hilt.
And there were queerer things: a toy mammoth made of actual mammoth hair, an ivory phallus,
a helm made from a unicorns head, complete with horn. How much food such things would buy in the
Free Cities, Jon Snow could not begin to say.
After the riders came the men of the Frozen Shore. Jon watched a dozen of their big bone
chariots roll past him one by one, clattering like Rattleshirt. Half still rolled as before; others had
replaced their wheels with runners. They slid across the snowdrifts smoothly, where the wheeled
chariots were foundering and sinking.
The dogs that drew the chariots were fearsome beasts, as big as direwolves. Their women were
clad in sealskins, some with infants at their breasts. Older children shuffled along behind their mothers
and looked up at Jon with eyes as dark and hard as the stones they clutched. Some of the men wore
antlers on their hats, and some wore walrus tusks. The two sorts did not love each other, he soon
gathered. A few thin reindeer brought up the rear, with the great dogs snapping at the heels of
stragglers.
Be wary o that lot, Jon Snow, Tormund warned him. A savage folk. The men are bad, the
women worse. He took a skin off his saddle and offered it up to Jon. Here. This will make them seem
less fearsome, might be. And warm you for the night. No, go on, its yours to keep. Drink deep.
Within was a mead so potent it made Jons eyes water and sent tendrils of fire snaking through
his chest. He drank deep. Youre a good man, Tormund Giantsbabe. For a wildling.
Better than most, might be. Not so good as some.
On and on the wildlings came, as the sun crept across the bright blue sky. Just before midday,
the movement stopped when an oxcart became jammed at a turn inside the tunnel. Jon Snow went to
have a look for himself. The cart was now wedged solid. The men behind were threatening to hack it
apart and butcher the ox where he stood, whilst the driver and his kin swore to kill them if they tried.
With the help of Tormund and his son Toregg, Jon managed to keep the wildlings from coming to blood,
but it took the best part of an hour before the way was opened again.
You need a bigger gate, Tormund complained to Jon with a sour look up at the sky, where a
few clouds had blown in. Too bloody slow this way. Like sucking the Milkwater through a reed. Har.
Would that I had the Horn of Joramun. Id give it a nice toot and wed climb through the rubble.
Melisandre burned the Horn of Joramun.
Did she? Tormund slapped his thigh and hooted. She burned that fine big horn, aye. A bloody
sin, I call it. A thousand years old, that was. We found it in a giants grave, and no man o us had ever
seen a horn so big. That must have been why Mance got the notion to tell you it were Joramuns. He

wanted you crows to think he had it in his power to blow your bloody Wall down about your knees. But
we never found the true horn, not for all our digging. If we had, every kneeler in your Seven Kingdoms
would have chunks o ice to cool his wine all summer.
Jon turned in his saddle, frowning. And Joramun blew the Horn of Winter and woke giants from
the earth. That huge horn with its bands of old gold, incised with ancient runes  had Mance Rayder lied
to him, or was Tormund lying now? If Mances horn was just a feint, where is the true horn?
By afternoon the sun had gone, and the day turned grey and gusty. A snow sky, Tormund
announced grimly.
Others had seen the same omen in those flat white clouds. It seemed to spur them on to haste.
Tempers began to fray. One man was stabbed when he tried to slip in ahead of others who had been
hours in the column. Toregg wrenched the knife away from his attacker, dragged both men from the
press, and sent them back to the wildling camp to start again.
Tormund, Jon said, as they watched four old women pull a cartful of children toward the gate,
tell me of our foe. I would know all there is to know of the Others.
The wildling rubbed his mouth. Not here, he mumbled, not this side o your Wall. The old
man glanced uneasily toward the trees in their white mantles. Theyre never far, you know. They wont
come out by day, not when that old suns shining, but dont think that means they went away. Shadows
never go away. Might be you dont see them, but theyre always clinging to your heels.
Did they trouble you on your way south?
They never came in force, if thats your meaning, but they were with us all the same, nibbling
at our edges. We lost more outriders than I care to think about, and it was worth your life to fall behind
or wander off. Every nightfall wed ring our camps with fire. They dont like fire much, and no mistake.
When the snows came, though  snow and sleet and freezing rain, its bloody hard to find dry wood or
get your kindling lit, and the cold  some nights our fires just seemed to shrivel up and die. Nights like
that, you always find some dead come the morning. Less they find you first. The night that Torwynd 
my boy, he  Tormund turned his face away.
I know, said Jon Snow.
Tormund turned back. You know nothing. You killed a dead man, aye, I heard. Mance killed a
hundred. A man can fight the dead, but when their masters come, when the white mists rise up  how
do you fight a mist, crow? Shadows with teeth  air so cold it hurts to breathe, like a knife inside your
chest  you do not know, you cannot know  can your sword cut cold?
We will see, Jon thought, remembering the things that Sam had told him, the things hed found
in his old books. Longclaw had been forged in the fires of old Valyria, forged in dragonflame and set with
spells. Dragon-steel, Sam called it. Stronger than any common steel, lighter, harder, sharper  But words
in a book were one thing. The true test came in battle.

You are not wrong, Jon said. I do not know. And if the gods are good, I never will.
The gods are seldom good, Jon Snow. Tormund nodded toward the sky. The clouds roll in.
Already it grows darker, colder. Your Wall no longer weeps. Look. He turned and called out to his son
Toregg. Ride back to the camp and get them moving. The sick ones and the weak ones, the slugabeds
and cravens, get them on their bloody feet. Set their bloody tents afire if you must. The gate must close
at nightfall. Any man not through the Wall by then had best pray the Others get to him afore I do. You
hear?
I hear. Toregg put his heels into his horse and galloped back down the column.
On and on the wildlings came. The day grew darker, just as Tormund said. Clouds covered the
sky from horizon to horizon, and warmth fled. There was more shoving at the gate, as men and goats
and bullocks jostled each other out of the way. It is more than impatience, Jon realized. They are afraid.
Warriors, spearwives, raiders, they are frightened of those woods, of shadows moving through the trees.
They want to put the Wall between them before the night descends.
A snowflake danced upon the air. Then another. Dance with me, Jon Snow, he thought. Youll
dance with me anon.
On and on and on the wildlings came. Some were moving faster now, hastening across the
battleground. Othersthe old, the young, the feeblecould scarce move at all. This morning the field
had been covered with a thick blanket of old snow, its white crust shining in the sun. Now the field was
brown and black and slimy. The passage of the free folk had turned the ground to mud and muck:
wooden wheels and horses hooves, runners of bone and horn and iron, pig trotters, heavy boots, the
cloven feet of cows and bullocks, the bare black feet of the Hornfoot folk, all had left their marks. The
soft footing slowed the column even more. You need a bigger gate, Tormund complained again.
By late afternoon the snow was falling steadily, but the river of wildlings had dwindled to a
stream. Columns of smoke rose from the trees where their camp had been. Toregg, Tormund
explained. Burning the dead. Always some who go to sleep and dont wake up. You find them in their
tents, them as have tents, curled up and froze. Toregg knows what to do.
The stream was no more than a trickle by the time Toregg emerged from the wood. With him
rode a dozen mounted warriors armed with spears and swords. My rear guard, Tormund said, with a
gap-toothed smile. You crows have rangers. So do we. Them I left in camp in case we were attacked
before we all got out.
Your best men.
Or my worst. Every man o them has killed a crow.
Amongst the riders came one man afoot, with some big beast trotting at his heels. A boar, Jon
saw. A monstrous boar. Twice the size of Ghost, the creature was covered with coarse black hair, with
tusks as long as a mans arm. Jon had never seen a boar so huge or ugly. The man beside him was no

beauty either; hulking, black-browed, he had a flat nose, heavy jowls dark with stubble, small black
close-set eyes.
Borroq. Tormund turned his head and spat. A skinchanger. It was not a question. Somehow
he knew.
Ghost turned his head. The falling snow had masked the boars scent, but now the white wolf
had the smell. He padded out in front of Jon, his teeth bared in a silent snarl.
No! Jon snapped. Ghost, down. Stay. Stay!
Boars and wolves, said Tormund. Best keep that beast o yours locked up tonight. Ill see that
Borroq does the same with his pig. He glanced up at the darkening sky. Thems the last, and none too
soon. Its going to snow all night, I feel it. Time I had a look at whats on tother side of all that ice.
You go ahead, Jon told him. I mean to be the last one through the ice. I will join you at the
feast.
Feast? Har! Now thats a word I like to hear. The wildling turned his garron toward the Wall
and slapped her on the rump. Toregg and the riders followed, dismounting by the gate to lead their
horses through. Bowen Marsh stayed long enough to supervise as his stewards pulled the last carts into
the tunnel. Only Jon Snow and his guards were left.
The skinchanger stopped ten yards away. His monster pawed at the mud, snuffling. A light
powdering of snow covered the boars humped black back. He gave a snort and lowered his head, and
for half a heartbeat Jon thought he was about to charge. To either side of him, his men lowered their
spears.
Brother, Borroq said. Youd best go on. We are about to close the gate.
You do that, Borroq said. You close it good and tight. Theyre coming, crow. He smiled as
ugly a smile as Jon had ever seen and made his way to the gate. The boar stalked after him. The falling
snow covered up their tracks behind them.
Thats done, then, Rory said when they were gone.
No, thought Jon Snow, it has only just begun.
Bowen Marsh was waiting for him south of the Wall, with a tablet full of numbers. Three
thousand one hundred and nineteen wildlings passed through the gate today, the Lord Steward told
him. Sixty of your hostages were sent off to Eastwatch and the Shadow Tower after theyd been fed.
Edd Tollett took six wagons of women back to Long Barrow. The rest remain with us.
Not for long, Jon promised him. Tormund means to lead his own folk to Oakenshield within a
day or two. The rest will follow, as soon as we sort where to put them.

As you say, Lord Snow. The words were stiff. The tone suggested that Bowen Marsh knew
where he would put them.
The castle Jon returned to was far different from the one hed left that morning. For as long as
he had known it, Castle Black had been a place of silence and shadows, where a meagre company of
men in black moved like ghosts amongst the ruins of a fortress that had once housed ten times their
numbers. All that had changed. Lights now shone through windows where Jon Snow had never seen
lights shine before. Strange voices echoed down the yards, and free folk were coming and going along
icy paths that had only known the black boots of crows for years. Outside the old Flint Barracks, he came
across a dozen men pelting one another with snow. Playing, Jon thought in astonishment, grown men
playing like children, throwing snowballs the way Bran and Arya once did, and Robb and me before
them.
Donal Noyes old armory was still dark and silent, however, and Jons rooms back of the cold
forge were darker still. But he had no sooner taken off his cloak than Dannel poked his head through the
door to announce that Clydas had brought a message.
Send him in. Jon lit a taper from an ember in his brazier and three candles from the taper.
Clydas entered pink and blinking, the parchment clutched in one soft hand. Beg pardon, Lord
Commander. I know you must be weary, but I thought you would want to see this at once.
You did well. Jon read:
At Hardhome, with six ships. Wild seas. Blackbird lost with all hands, two Lyseni ships driven
aground on Skane, Talon taking water. Very bad here. Wildlings eating their own dead. Dead things in
the woods. Braavosi captains will only take women, children on their ships. Witch women call us slavers.
Attempt to take Storm Crow defeated, six crew dead, many wildlings. Eight ravens left. Dead things in
the water. Send help by land, seas wracked by storms. From Talon, by hand of Maester Harmune.
Cotter Pyke had made his angry mark below. Is it grievous, my lord? asked Clydas. Grievous
enough. Dead things in the wood. Dead things in the water. Six ships left, of the eleven that set sail. Jon
Snow rolled up the parchment, frowning. Night falls, he thought, and now my war begins.
THE DISCARDED KNIGHT
All kneel for His Magnificence Hizdahr zo Loraq, Fourteenth of That Noble Name, King of
Meereen, Scion of Ghis, Octarch of the Old Empire, Master of the Skahazadhan, Consort to Dragons and
Blood of the Harpy, roared the herald. His voice echoed off the marble floor and rang amongst the
pillars.

Ser Barristan Selmy slipped a hand beneath the fold of his cloak and loosened his sword in its
scabbard. No blades were allowed in the presence of the king save those of his protectors. It seemed as
though he still counted amongst that number despite his dismissal. No one had tried to take his sword,
at least.
Daenerys Targaryen had preferred to hold court from a bench of polished ebony, smooth and
simple, covered with the cushions that Ser Barristan had found to make her more comfortable. King
Hizdahr had replaced the bench with two imposing thrones of gilded wood, their tall backs carved into
the shape of dragons. The king seated himself in the right-hand throne with a golden crown upon his
head and a jeweled sceptre in one pale hand. The second throne remained vacant.
The important throne, thought Ser Barristan. No dragon chair can replace a dragon no matter
how elaborately its carved.
To the right of the twin thrones stood Goghor the Giant, a huge hulk of a man with a brutal,
scarred face. To the left was the Spotted Cat, a leopard skin flung over one shoulder. Back of them were
Belaquo Bone-breaker and the cold-eyed Khrazz. Seasoned killers all, thought Selmy, but it is one thing
to face a foe in the pit when his coming is heralded by horns and drums and another to find a hidden
killer before he can strike.
The day was young and fresh, and yet he felt bone-tired, as if hed fought all night. The older he
got, the less sleep Ser Barristan seemed to need. As a squire he could sleep ten hours a night and still be
yawning when he stumbled out onto the practice yard. At three-and-sixty he found that five hours a
night was more than enough. Last night, he had scarce slept at all. His bedchamber was a small cell off
the queens apartments, originally slave quarters; his furnishings consisted of a bed, a chamber pot, a
wardrobe for his clothing, even a chair should he want to sit. On a bedside table he kept a beeswax
candle and a small carving of the Warrior. Though he was not a pious man, the carving made him feel
less alone here in this queer alien city, and it was to that he had turned in the black watches of night.
Shield me from these doubts that gnaw at me, he had prayed, and give me the strength to do what is
right. But neither prayer nor dawn had brought him certainty.
The hall was as crowded as the old knight had ever seen it, but it was the missing faces that
Barristan Selmy noted most: Missandei, Belwas, Grey Worm, Aggo and Jhogo and Rakharo, Irri and
Jhiqui, Daario Naharis. In the Shavepates place stood a fat man in a muscled breastplate and lions
mask, his heavy legs poking out beneath a skirt of leather straps: Marghaz zo Loraq, the kings cousin,
new commander of the Brazen Beasts. Selmy had already formed a healthy contempt for the man. He
had known his sort in Kings Landingfawning to his superiors, harsh to his inferiors, as blind as he was
boastful and too proud by half.
Skahaz could be in the hall as well, Selmy realized, that ugly face of his concealed behind a mask.
Two score Brazen Beasts stood between the pillars, torchlight shining off the polished brass of their
masks. The Shavepate could be any one of them.

The hall thrummed to the sound of a hundred low voices, echoing off the pillars and the marble
floor. It made an ominous sound, angry. It reminded Selmy of the sound a hornets nest might make an
instant before hornets all came boiling out. And on the faces in the crowd he saw anger, grief, suspicion,
fear.
Hardly had the kings new herald called the court to order than the ugliness began. One woman
began to wail about a brother who had died at Daznaks Pit, another of the damage to her palanquin. A
fat man tore off his bandages to show the court his burned arm, where the flesh was still raw and
oozing. And when a man in a blue-and-gold tokar began to speak of Harghaz the Hero, a freedman
behind him shoved him to the floor. It took six Brazen Beasts to pull them apart and drag them from the
hall. Fox, hawk, seal, locust, lion, toad. Selmy wondered if the masks had meaning to the men who wore
them. Did the same men wear the same masks every day, or did they choose new faces every morning?
Quiet! Reznak mo Reznak was pleading. Please! I will answer if you will only 
Is it true? a freedwoman shouted. Is our mother dead?
No, no, no, Reznak screeched. Queen Daenerys will return to Meereen in her own time in all
her might and majesty. Until such time, His Worship King Hizdahr shall
He is no king of mine, a freedman yelled.
Men began to shove at one another. The queen is not dead, the seneschal proclaimed. Her
bloodriders have been dispatched across the Skahazadhan to find Her Grace and return her to her loving
lord and loyal subjects. Each has ten picked riders, and each man has three swift horses, so they may
travel fast and far. Queen Daenerys shall be found.
A tall Ghiscari in a brocade robe spoke next, in a voice as sonorous as it was cold. King Hizdahr
shifted on his dragon throne, his face stony as he did his best to appear concerned but unperturbed.
Once again his seneschal gave answer.
Ser Barristan let Reznaks oily words wash over him. His years in the Kingsguard had taught him
the trick of listening without hearing, especially useful when the speaker was intent on proving that
words were truly wind. Back at the rear of the hall, he spied the Dornish princeling and his two
companions. They should not have come. Martell does not realize his danger. Daenerys was his only
friend at this court, and she is gone. He wondered how much they understood of what was being said.
Even he could not always make sense of the mongrel Ghiscari tongue the slavers spoke, especially when
they were speaking fast.
Prince Quentyn was listening intently, at least. That one is his fathers son. Short and stocky,
plain-faced, he seemed a decent lad, sober, sensible, dutiful  but not the sort to make a young girls
heart beat faster. And Daenerys Targaryen, whatever else she might be, was still a young girl, as she
herself would claim when it pleased her to play the innocent. Like all good queens she put her people
firstelse she would never have wed Hizdahr zo Loraqbut the girl in her still yearned for poetry,
passion, and laughter. She wants fire, and Dorne sent her mud.

You could make a poultice out of mud to cool a fever. You could plant seeds in mud and grow a
crop to feed your children. Mud would nourish you, where fire would only consume you, but fools and
children and young girls would choose fire every time.
Behind the prince, Ser Gerris Drinkwater was whispering something to Yronwood. Ser Gerris was
all his prince was not: tall and lean and comely, with a swordsmans grace and a courtiers wit. Selmy did
not doubt that many a Dornish maiden had run her fingers through that sun-streaked hair and kissed
that teasing smile off his lips. If this one had been the prince, things might have gone elsewise, he could
not help but think  but there was something a bit too pleasant about Drinkwater for his taste. False
coin, the old knight thought. He had known such men before.
Whatever he was whispering must have been amusing, for his big bald friend gave a sudden
snort of laughter, loud enough so that the king himself turned his head toward the Dornishmen. When
he saw the prince, Hizdahr zo Loraq frowned.
Ser Barristan did not like that frown. And when the king beckoned his cousin Marghaz closer,
leaned down, and whispered in his ear, he liked that even less.
I swore no oath to Dorne, Ser Barristan told himself. But Lewyn Martell had been his Sworn
Brother, back in the days when the bonds between the Kingsguard still went deep. I could not help
Prince Lewyn on the Trident, but I can help his nephew now. Martell was dancing in a vipers nest, and he
did not even see the snakes. His continued presence, even after Daenerys had given herself to another
before the eyes of gods and men, would provoke any husband, and Quentyn no longer had the queen to
shield him from Hizdahrs wroth. Although 
The thought hit him like a slap across the face. Quentyn had grown up amongst the courts of
Dorne. Plots and poisons were no strangers to him. Nor was Prince Lewyn his only uncle. He is kin to the
Red Viper. Daenerys had taken another for her consort, but if Hizdahr died, she would be free to wed
again. Could the Shavepate have been wrong? Who can say that the locusts were meant for Daenerys? It
was the kings own box. What if he was meant to be the victim all along? Hizdahrs death would have
smashed the fragile peace. The Sons of the Harpy would have resumed their murders, the Yunkishmen
their war. Daenerys might have had no better choice than Quentyn and his marriage pact.
Ser Barristan was still wrestling with that suspicion when he heard the sound of heavy boots
ascending the steep stone steps at the back of the hall. The Yunkishmen had come. Three Wise Masters
led the procession from the Yellow City, each with his own armed retinue. One slaver wore a tokar of
maroon silk fringed with gold, one a striped tokar of teal and orange, the third an ornate breastplate
inlaid with erotic scenes done in jet and jade and mother-of-pearl. The sellsword captain Bloodbeard
accompanied them with a leathern sack slung across one massive shoulder and a look of mirth and
murder on his face.
No Tattered Prince, Selmy noted. No Brown Ben Plumm. Ser Barristan eyed Bloodbeard coolly.
Give me half a reason to dance with you, and we will see who is laughing at the end.

Reznak mo Reznak wormed his way forward. Wise Masters, you honor us. His Radiance King
Hizdahr bids welcome to his friends from Yunkai. We understand
Understand this. Bloodbeard pulled a severed head from his sack and flung it at the seneschal.
Reznak gave a squeak of fright and leapt aside. The head bounced past him, leaving spots of
blood on the purple marble floor as it rolled until it fetched up against the foot of King Hizdahrs dragon
throne. Up and down the length of the hall, Brazen Beasts lowered their spears. Goghor the Giant
lumbered forward to place himself before the kings throne, and the Spotted Cat and Khrazz moved to
either side of him to form a wall.
Bloodbeard laughed. Hes dead. He wont bite.
Gingerly, so gingerly, the seneschal approached the head, lifted it delicately by the hair.
Admiral Groleo.
Ser Barristan glanced toward the throne. He had served so many kings, he could not help but
imagine how they might have reacted to this provocation. Aerys would have flinched away in horror,
likely cutting himself on the barbs of the Iron Throne, then shrieked at his swordsmen to cut the
Yunkishmen to pieces. Robert would have shouted for his hammer to repay Bloodbeard in kind. Even
Jaehaerys, reckoned weak by many, would have ordered the arrest of Bloodbeard and the Yunkish
slavers.
Hizdahr sat frozen, a man transfixed. Reznak set the head on a satin pillow at the kings feet,
then scampered away, his mouth twisted up in a moue of distaste. Ser Barristan could smell the
seneschals heavy floral perfume from several yards away.
The dead man stared up reproachfully. His beard was brown with caked blood, but a trickle of
red still leaked from his neck. From the look of him, it had taken more than one blow to part his head
from his body. In the back of the hall, petitioners began to slip away. One of the Brazen Beasts ripped off
his brass hawks mask and began to spew up his breakfast.
Barristan Selmy was no stranger to severed heads. This one, though  he had crossed half the
world with the old seafarer, from Pentos to Qarth and back again to Astapor. Groleo was a good man.
He did not deserve this end. All he ever wanted was to go home. The knight tensed, waiting.
This, King Hizdahr said at last, this is not  we are not pleased, this  what is the meaning of
this  this 
The slaver in the maroon tokar produced a parchment. I have the honor to bear this message
from the council of masters. He unrolled the scroll. It is here written, Seven entered Meereen to sign
the peace accords and witness the celebratory games at the Pit of Daznak. As surety for their safety,
seven hostages were tendered us. The Yellow City mourns its noble son Yurkhaz zo Yunzak, who perished
cruelly whilst a guest of Meereen. Blood must pay for blood.

Groleo had a wife back in Pentos. Children, grandchildren. Why him, of all the hostages? Jhogo,
Hero, and Daario Naharis all commanded fighting men, but Groleo had been an admiral without a fleet.
Did they draw straws, or did they think Groleo the least valuable to us, the least likely to provoke
reprisal? the knight asked himself  but it was easier to pose that question than to answer it. I have no
skill at unraveling such knots.
Your Grace, Ser Barristan called out. If it please you to recall, the noble Yurkhaz died by
happenstance. He stumbled on the steps as he tried to flee the dragon and was crushed beneath the
feet of his own slaves and companions. That, or his heart burst in terror. He was old.
Who is this who speaks without the kings leave? asked the Yunkish lord in the striped tokar, a
small man with a receding chin and teeth too big for his mouth. He reminded Selmy of a rabbit. Must
the lords of Yunkai attend to the natterings of guards? He shook the pearls that fringed his tokar.
Hizdahr zo Loraq could not seem to look away from the head. Only when Reznak whispered
something in his ear did he finally bestir himself. Yurkhaz zo Yunzak was your supreme commander, he
said. Which of you speaks for Yunkai now?
All of us, said the rabbit. The council of masters.
King Hizdahr found some steel. Then all of you bear the responsibility for this breach of our
peace.
The Yunkishman in the breastplate gave answer. Our peace has not been breached. Blood pays
for blood, a life for a life. To show our good faith, we return three of your hostages. The iron ranks
behind him parted. Three Meereenese were ushered forward, clutching at their tokarstwo women
and a man.
Sister, said Hizdahr zo Loraq, stiffly. Cousins. He gestured at the bleeding head. Remove
that from our sight.
The admiral was a man of the sea, Ser Barristan reminded him. Mayhaps Your Magnificence
might ask the Yunkaii to return his body to us, so we may bury him beneath the waves?
The rabbit-toothed lord waved a hand. If it please Your Radiance, this shall be done. A sign of
our respect.
Reznak mo Reznak cleared his throat noisily. Meaning no offense, yet it seems to me that Her
Worship Queen Daenerys gave you  ah  seven hostages. The other three 
The others shall remain our guests, announced the Yunkish lord in the breastplate, until the
dragons have been destroyed.
A hush fell across the hall. Then came the murmurs and the mutters, whispered curses,
whispered prayers, the hornets stirring in their hive. The dragons  said King Hizdahr.

 are monsters, as all men saw in Daznaks Pit. No true peace is possible whilst they live.
Reznak replied. Her Magnificence Queen Daenerys is Mother of Dragons. Only she can
Bloodbeards scorn cut him off. She is gone. Burned and devoured. Weeds grow through her
broken skull.
A roar greeted those words. Some began to shout and curse. Others stamped their feet and
whistled their approval. It took the Brazen Beasts pounding the butts of their spears against the floor
before the hall quieted again.
Ser Barristan never once took his eyes off Bloodbeard. He came to sack a city, and Hizdahrs
peace has cheated him of his plunder. He will do whatever he must to start the bloodshed.
Hizdahr zo Loraq rose slowly from his dragon throne. I must consult my council. This court is
done.
All kneel for His Magnificence Hizdahr zo Loraq, Fourteenth of That Ancient Name, King of
Meereen, Scion of Ghis, Octarch of the Old Empire, Master of the Skahazadhan, Consort to Dragons and
Blood of the Harpy, the herald shouted. Brazen Beasts swung out amongst the pillars to form a line,
then began a slow advance in lockstep, ushering the petitioners from the hall.
The Dornishmen did not have as far to go as most. As befit his rank and station, Quentyn Martell
had been given quarters within the Great Pyramid, two levels downa handsome suite of rooms with
its own privy and walled terrace. Perhaps that was why he and his companions lingered, waiting until
the press had lessened before beginning to make their way toward the steps.
Ser Barristan watched them, thoughtful. What would Daenerys want? he asked himself. He
thought he knew. The old knight strode across the hall, his long white cloak rippling behind him. He
caught the Dornishmen at the top of the steps. Your fathers court was never half so lively, he heard
Drinkwater japing.
Prince Quentyn, Selmy called. Might I beg a word?
Quentyn Martell turned. Ser Barristan. Of course. My chambers are one level down.
No. It is not my place to counsel you, Prince Quentyn  but if I were you, I would not return to
my chambers. You and your friends should go down the steps and leave.
Prince Quentyn stared. Leave the pyramid?
Leave the city. Return to Dorne.
The Dornishmen exchanged a look. Our arms and armor are back in our apartments, said
Gerris Drinkwater. Not to mention most of the coin that we have left.

Swords can be replaced, said Ser Barristan. I can provide you with coin enough for passage
back to Dorne. Prince Quentyn, the king made note of you today. He frowned.
Gerris Drinkwater laughed. Should we be frightened of Hizdahr zo Loraq? You saw him just
now. He quailed before the Yunkishmen. They sent him a head, and he did nothing.
Quentyn Martell nodded in agreement. A prince does well to think before he acts. This king  I
do not know what to think of him. The queen warned me against him as well, true, but 
She warned you? Selmy frowned. Why are you still here?
Prince Quentyn flushed. The marriage pact
was made by two dead men and contained not a word about the queen or you. It promised
your sisters hand to the queens brother, another dead man. It has no force. Until you turned up here,
Her Grace was ignorant of its existence. Your father keeps his secrets well, Prince Quentyn. Too well, I
fear. If the queen had known of this pact in Qarth, she might never have turned aside for Slavers Bay,
but you came too late. I have no wish to salt your wounds, but Her Grace has a new husband and an old
paramour, and seems to prefer the both of them to you.
Anger flashed in the princes dark eyes. This Ghiscari lordling is no fit consort for the queen of
the Seven Kingdoms.
That is not for you to judge. Ser Barristan paused, wondering if he had said too much already.
No. Tell him the rest of it. That day at Daznaks Pit, some of the food in the royal box was poisoned. It
was only chance that Strong Belwas ate it all. The Blue Graces say that only his size and freakish strength
have saved him, but it was a near thing. He may yet die.
The shock was plain on Prince Quentyns face. Poison  meant for Daenerys?
Her or Hizdahr. Perhaps both. The box was his, though. His Grace made all the arrangements. If
the poison was his doing  well, he will need a scapegoat. Who better than a rival from a distant land
who has no friends at this court? Who better than a suitor the queen spurned?
Quentyn Martell went pale. Me? I would never  you cannot think I had any part in any 
That was the truth, or he is a master mummer. Others might, said Ser Barristan. The Red
Viper was your uncle. And you have good reason to want King Hizdahr dead.
So do others, suggested Gerris Drinkwater. Naharis, for one. The queens 
 paramour, Ser Barristan finished, before the Dornish knight could say anything that might
besmirch the queens honor. That is what you call them down in Dorne, is it not? He did not wait for a
reply. Prince Lewyn was my Sworn Brother. In those days there were few secrets amongst the
Kingsguard. I know he kept a paramour. He did not feel there was any shame in that.
No, said Quentyn, red-faced, but 

Daario would kill Hizdahr in a heartbeat if he dared, Ser Barristan went on. But not with
poison. Never. And Daario was not there in any case. Hizdahr would be pleased to blame him for the
locusts, all the same  but the king may yet have need of the Stormcrows, and he will lose them if he
appears complicit in the death of their captain. No, my prince. If His Grace needs a poisoner, he will look
to you. He had said all that he could safely say. In a few more days, if the gods smiled on them, Hizdahr
zo Loraq would no longer rule Meereen  but no good would be served by having Prince Quentyn
caught up in the bloodbath that was coming. If you must remain in Meereen, you would do well to stay
away from court and hope Hizdahr forgets you, Ser Barristan finished, but a ship for Volantis would be
wiser, my prince. Whatever course you choose, I wish you well.
Before he had gone three steps, Quentyn Martell called out to him. Barristan the Bold, they call
you.
Some do. Selmy had won that name when he was ten years old, a new-made squire, yet so
vain and proud and foolish that he got it in his head that he could joust with tried and proven knights. So
hed borrowed a warhorse and some plate from Lord Dondarrions armory and entered the lists at
Blackhaven as a mystery knight. Even the herald laughed. My arms were so thin that when I lowered my
lance it was all I could do to keep the point from furrowing the ground. Lord Dondarrion would have
been within his rights to pull him off the horse and spank him, but the Prince of Dragonflies had taken
pity on the addlepated boy in the ill-fitting armor and accorded him the respect of taking up his
challenge. One course was all that it required. Afterward Prince Duncan helped him to his feet and
removed his helm. A boy, he had proclaimed to the crowd. A bold boy. Fifty-three years ago. How
many men are still alive who were there at Blackhaven?
What name do you think they will give me, should I return to Dorne without Daenerys? Prince
Quentyn asked. Quentyn the Cautious? Quentyn the Craven? Quentyn the Quail?
The Prince Who Came Too Late, the old knight thought  but if a knight of the Kingsguard learns
nothing else, he learns to guard his tongue. Quentyn the Wise, he suggested. And hoped that it was
true.
THE SPURNED SUITOR
The hour of ghosts was almost upon them when Ser Gerris Drinkwater returned to the pyramid
to report that he had found Beans, Books, and Old Bill Bone in one of Meereens less savory cellars,
drinking yellow wine and watching naked slaves kill one another with bare hands and filed teeth.
Beans pulled a blade and proposed a wager to determine if deserters had bellies full of yellow
slime, Ser Gerris reported, so I tossed him a dragon and asked if yellow gold would do. He bit the coin
and asked what I meant to buy. When I told him he slipped the knife away and asked if I was drunk or
mad.

Let him think what he wants, so long as he delivers the message, said Quentyn.
Hell do that much. Ill wager you get your meeting too, if only so Rags can have Pretty Meris
cut your liver out and fry it up with onions. We should be heeding Selmy. When Barristan the Bold tells
you to run, a wise man laces up his boots. We should find a ship for Volantis whilst the port is still open.
Just the mention turned Ser Archibalds cheeks green. No more ships. Id sooner hop back to
Volantis on one foot.
Volantis, Quentyn thought. Then Lys, then home. Back the way I came, empty-handed. Three
brave men dead, for what?
It would be sweet to see the Greenblood again, to visit Sunspear and the Water Gardens and
breathe the clean sweet mountain air of Yronwood in place of the hot, wet, filthy humors of Slavers
Bay. His father would speak no word of rebuke, Quentyn knew, but the disappointment would be there
in his eyes. His sister would be scornful, the Sand Snakes would mock him with smiles sharp as swords,
and Lord Yronwood, his second father, who had sent his own son along to keep him safe 
I will not keep you here, Quentyn told his friends. My father laid this task on me, not you. Go
home, if that is what you want. By whatever means you like. I am staying.
The big man shrugged. Then Drink and me are staying too.
The next night, Denzo Dhan turned up at Prince Quentyns door to talk terms. He will meet
with you on the morrow, by the spice market. Look for a door marked with a purple lotus. Knock twice
and call for freedom.
Agreed, said Quentyn. Arch and Gerris will be with me. He can bring two men as well. No
more.
If it please my prince. The words were polite enough, but Denzos tone was edged with
malice, and the eyes of the warrior poet gleamed bright with mockery. Come at sunset. And see that
you are not followed.
The Dornishmen left the Great Pyramid an hour shy of sunset in case they took a wrong turn or
had difficulty finding the purple lotus. Quentyn and Gerris wore their sword belts. The big man had his
warhammer slung across his broad back.
It is still not too late to abandon this folly, Gerris said, as they made their way down a foetid
alley toward the old spice market. The smell of piss was in the air, and they could hear the rumble of a
corpse carts iron-rimmed wheels off ahead. Old Bill Bone used to say that Pretty Maris could stretch
out a mans dying for a moons turn. We lied to them, Quent. Used them to get us here, then went over
to the Stormcrows.
As we were commanded.

Tatters never meant for us to do it for real, though, put in the big man. His other boys, Ser
Orson and Dick Straw, Hungerford, Will of the Woods, that lot, theyre still down in some dungeon
thanks to us. Old Rags cant have liked that much.
No, Prince Quentyn said, but he likes gold.
Gerris laughed. A pity we have none. Do you trust this peace, Quent? I dont. Half the city is
calling the dragonslayer a hero, and the other half spits blood at the mention of his name.
Harzoo, the big man said.
Quentyn frowned. His name was Harghaz.
Hizdahr, Humzum, Hagnag, what does it matter? I call them all Harzoo. He was no
dragonslayer. All he did was get his arse roasted black and crispy.
He was brave. Would I have the courage to face that monster with nothing but a spear?
He died bravely, is what you mean.
He died screaming, said Arch.
Gerris put a hand on Quentyns shoulder. Even if the queen returns, shell still be married.
Not if I give King Harzoo a little smack with my hammer, suggested the big man.
Hizdahr, said Quentyn. His name is Hizdahr.
One kiss from my hammer and no one will care what his name was, said Arch.
They do not see. His friends had lost sight of his true purpose here. The road leads through her,
not to her. Daenerys is the means to the prize, not the prize itself.  The dragon has three heads, she
said to me. My marriage need not be the end of all your hopes, she said. I know why you are here. For
fire and blood. I have Targaryen blood in me, you know that. I can trace my lineage back
Fuck your lineage, said Gerris. The dragons wont care about your blood, except maybe how
it tastes. You cannot tame a dragon with a history lesson. Theyre monsters, not maesters. Quent, is this
truly what you want to do?
This is what I have to do. For Dorne. For my father. For Cletus and Will and Maester Kedry.
Theyre dead, said Gerris. They wont care.
All dead, Quentyn agreed. For what? To bring me here, so I might wed the dragon queen. A
grand adventure, Cletus called it. Demon roads and stormy seas, and at the end of it the most beautiful
woman in the world. A tale to tell our grandchildren. But Cletus will never father a child, unless he left a
bastard in the belly of that tavern wench he liked. Will will never have his wedding. Their deaths should
have some meaning.

Gerris pointed to where a corpse slumped against a brick wall, attended by a cloud of glistening
green flies. Did his death have meaning?
Quentyn looked at the body with distaste. He died of the flux. Stay well away from him. The
pale mare was inside the city walls. Small wonder that the streets seemed so empty. The Unsullied will
send a corpse cart for him.
No doubt. But that was not my question. Mens lives have meaning, not their deaths. I loved
Will and Cletus too, but this will not bring them back to us. This is a mistake, Quent. You cannot trust in
sellswords.
They are men like any other men. They want gold, glory, power. Thats all I am trusting in.
That, and my own destiny. I am a prince of Dorne, and the blood of dragons is in my veins.
The sun had sunk below the city wall by the time they found the purple lotus, painted on the
weathered wooden door of a low brick hovel squatting amidst a row of similar hovels in the shadow of
the great yellow-and-green pyramid of Rhazdar. Quentyn knocked twice, as instructed. A gruff voice
answered through the door, growling something unintelligible in the mongrel tongue of Slavers Bay, an
ugly blend of Old Ghiscari and High Valyrian. The prince answered in the same tongue. Freedom.
The door opened. Gerris entered first, for cautions sake, with Quentyn close behind him and
the big man bringing up the rear. Within, the air was hazy with bluish smoke, whose sweet smell could
not quite cover up the deeper stinks of piss and sour wine and rotting meat. The space was much larger
than it had seemed from without, stretching off to right and left into the adjoining hovels. What had
appeared to be a dozen structures from the street turned into one long hall inside.
At this hour the house was less than half full. A few of the patrons favored the Dornishmen with
looks bored or hostile or curious. The rest were crowded around the pit at the far end of the room,
where a pair of naked men were slashing at each other with knives whilst the watchers cheered them
on.
Quentyn saw no sign of the men they had come to meet. Then a door he had not seen before
swung open, and an old woman emerged, a shriveled thing in a dark red tokar fringed with tiny golden
skulls. Her skin was white as mares milk, her hair so thin that he could see the scalp beneath. Dorne,
she said, I be Zahrina. Purple Lotus. Go down here, you find them. She held the door and gestured
them through.
Beyond was a flight of wooden steps, steep and twisting. This time the big man led the way and
Gerris was the rear guard, with the prince between them. An undercellar. It was a long way down, and
so dark that Quentyn had to feel his way to keep from slipping. Near the bottom Ser Archibald pulled his
dagger.
They emerged in a brick vault thrice the size of the winesink above. Huge wooden vats lined the
walls as far as the prince could see. A red lantern hung on a hook just inside the door, and a greasy black
candle flickered on an overturned barrel serving as a table. That was the only light.

Caggo Corpsekiller was pacing by the wine vats, his black arakh hanging at his hip. Pretty Meris
stood cradling a crossbow, her eyes as cold and dead as two grey stones. Denzo Dhan barred the door
once the Dornish-men were inside, then took up a position in front of it, arms crossed against his chest.
One too many, Quentyn thought.
The Tattered Prince himself was seated at the table, nursing a cup of wine. In the yellow
candlelight his silver-grey hair seemed almost golden, though the pouches underneath his eyes were
etched as large as saddlebags. He wore a brown wool travelers cloak, with silvery chain mail glimmering
underneath. Did that betoken treachery or simple prudence? An old sellsword is a cautious sellsword.
Quentyn approached his table. My lord. You look different without your cloak.
My ragged raiment? The Pentoshi gave a shrug. A poor thing  yet those tatters fill my foes
with fear, and on the battlefield the sight of my rags blowing in the wind emboldens my men more than
any banner. And if I want to move unseen, I need only slip it off to become plain and un-remarkable. He
gestured at the bench across from him. Sit. I understand you are a prince. Would that I had known. Will
you drink? Zahrina offers food as well. Her bread is stale and her stew is unspeakable. Grease and salt,
with a morsel or two of meat. Dog, she says, but I think rat is more likely. It will not kill you, though. I
have found that it is only when the food is tempting that one must beware. Poisoners invariably choose
the choicest dishes.
You brought three men, Ser Gerris pointed out, with an edge in his voice. We agreed on two
apiece.
Meris is no man. Meris, sweet, undo your shirt, show him.
That will not be necessary, said Quentyn. If the talk he had heard was true, beneath that shirt
Pretty Meris had only the scars left by the men whod cut her breasts off. Meris is a woman, I agree.
Youve still twisted the terms.
Tattered and twisty, what a rogue I am. Three to two is not much of an advantage, it must be
admitted, but it counts for something. In this world, a man must learn to seize whatever gifts the gods
chose to send him. That was a lesson I learned at some cost. I offer it to you as a sign of my good faith.
He gestured at the chair again. Sit, and say what you came to say. I promise not to have you killed until
I have heard you out. That is the least I can do for a fellow prince. Quentyn, is it?
Quentyn of House Martell.
Frog suits you better. It is not my custom to drink with liars and deserters, but youve made me
curious.
Quentyn sat. One wrong word, and this could turn to blood in half a heartbeat. I ask your
pardon for our deception. The only ships sailing for Slavers Bay were those that had been hired to bring
you to the wars.

The Tattered Prince gave a shrug. Every turncloak has his tale. You are not the first to swear me
your swords, take my coin, and run. All of them have reasons. My little son is sick, or My wife is putting
horns on me, or The other men all make me suck their cocks. Such a charming boy, the last, but I did
not excuse his desertion. Another fellow told me our food was so wretched that he had to flee before it
made him sick, so I had his foot cut off, roasted it up, and fed it to him. Then I made him our camp cook.
Our meals improved markedly, and when his contract was fulfilled he signed another. You, though 
several of my best are locked up in the queens dungeons thanks to that lying tongue of yours, and I
doubt that you can even cook.
I am a prince of Dorne, said Quentyn. I had a duty to my father and my people. There was a
secret marriage pact.
So I heard. And when the silver queen saw your scrap of parchment she fell into your arms,
yes?
No, said Pretty Meris. No? Oh, I recall. Your bride flew off on a dragon. Well, when she
returns, do be sure to invite us to your nuptials. The men of the company would love to drink to your
happiness, and I do love a Westerosi wedding. The bedding part especially, only  oh, wait  He turned
to Denzo Dhan. Denzo, I thought you told me that the dragon queen had married some Ghiscari.
A Meereenese nobleman. Rich.
The Tattered Prince turned back to Quentyn. Could that be true? Surely not. What of your
marriage pact?
She laughed at him, said Pretty Meris.
Daenerys never laughed. The rest of Meereen might see him as an amusing curiosity, like the
exiled Summer Islander King Robert used to keep at Kings Landing, but the queen had always spoken to
him gently. We came too late, said Quentyn.
A pity you did not desert me sooner. The Tattered Prince sipped at his wine. So  no wedding
for Prince Frog. Is that why youve come hopping back to me? Have my three brave Dornish lads decided
to honor their contracts?
No.
How vexing.
Yurkhaz zo Yunzak is dead.
Ancient tidings. I saw him die. The poor man saw a dragon and stumbled as he tried to flee.
Then a thousand of his closest friends stepped on him. No doubt the Yellow City is awash in tears. Did
you ask me here to toast his memory?
No. Have the Yunkishmen chosen a new commander?

The council of masters has been unable to agree. Yezzan zo Qaggaz had the most support, but
now hes died as well. The Wise Masters are rotating the supreme command amongst themselves.
Today our leader is the one your friends in the ranks dubbed the Drunken Conqueror. On the morrow, it
will be Lord Wobblecheeks.
The Rabbit, said Meris. Wobblecheeks was yesterday.
I stand corrected, my sweetling. Our Yunkish friends were kind enough to provide us with a
chart. I must strive to be more assiduous about consulting it.
Yurkhaz zo Yunzak was the man who hired you.
He signed our contract on behalf of his city. Just so.
Meereen and Yunkai have made peace. The siege is to be lifted, the armies disbanded. There
will be no battle, no slaughter, no city to sack and plunder.
Life is full of disappointments.
How long do you think the Yunkishmen will want to continue paying wages to four free
companies?
The Tattered Prince took a sip of wine and said, A vexing question. But this is the way of life for
we men of the free companies. One war ends, another begins. Fortunately there is always someone
fighting someone somewhere. Perhaps here. Even as we sit here drinking Bloodbeard is urging our
Yunkish friends to present King Hizdahr with another head. Freedmen and slavers eye each others necks
and sharpen their knives, the Sons of the Harpy plot in their pyramids, the pale mare rides down slave
and lord alike, our friends from the Yellow City gaze out to sea, and somewhere in the grasslands a
dragon nibbles the tender flesh of Daenerys Targaryen. Who rules Meereen tonight? Who will rule it on
the morrow? The Pentoshi gave a shrug. One thing I am certain of. Someone will have need of our
swords.
I have need of those swords. Dorne will hire you.
The Tattered Prince glanced at Pretty Meris. He does not lack for gall, this Frog. Must I remind
him? My dear prince, the last contract we signed you used to wipe your pretty pink bottom.
I will double whatever the Yunkishmen are paying you.
And pay in gold upon the signing of our contract, yes?
I will pay you part when we reach Volantis, the rest when I am back in Sunspear. We brought
gold with us when we set sail, but it would have been hard to conceal once we joined the company, so
we gave it over to the banks. I can show you papers.
Ah. Papers. But we will be paid double.

Twice as many papers, said Pretty Meris. The rest youll have in Dorne, Quentyn insisted.
My father is a man of honor. If I put my seal to an agreement, he will fulfill its terms. You have my word
on that.
The Tattered Prince finished his wine, turned the cup over, and set it down between them. So.
Let me see if I understand. A proven liar and oathbreaker wishes to contract with us and pay in
promises. And for what services? I wonder. Are my Windblown to smash the Yunkaii and sack the
Yellow City? Defeat a Dothraki khalasar in the field? Escort you home to your father? Or will you be
content if we deliver Queen Daenerys to your bed wet and willing? Tell me true, Prince Frog. What
would you have of me and mine?
I need you to help me steal a dragon.
Caggo Corpsekiller chuckled. Pretty Meris curled her lip in a half-smile. Denzo Dhan whistled.
The Tattered Prince only leaned back on his stool and said, Double does not pay for dragons,
princeling. Even a frog should know that much. Dragons come dear. And men who pay in promises
should have at least the sense to promise more.
If you want me to triple
What I want, said the Tattered Prince, is Pentos.
THE GRIFFIN REBORN
He sent the archers in first.
Black Balaq commanded one thousand bows. In his youth, Jon Connington had shared the
disdain most knights had for bowmen, but he had grown wiser in exile. In its own way, the arrow was as
deadly as the sword, so for the long voyage he had insisted that Homeless Harry Strickland break Balaqs
command into ten companies of one hundred men and place each company upon a different ship.
Six of those ships had stayed together well enough to deliver their passengers to the shores of
Cape Wrath (the other four were lagging but would turn up eventually, the Volantenes assured them,
but Griff thought it just as likely they were lost or had landed elsewhere), which left the company with
six hundred bows. For this, two hundred proved sufficient. They will try to send out ravens, he told
Black Balaq. Watch the maesters tower. Here. He pointed to the map he had drawn in the mud of
their campsite. Bring down every bird that leaves the castle.
This we do, replied the Summer Islander.
A third of Balaqs men used crossbows, another third the double-curved horn-and-sinew bows
of the east. Better than these were the big yew long-bows borne by the archers of Westerosi blood, and

best of all were the great bows of goldenheart treasured by Black Balaq himself and his fifty Summer
Islanders. Only a dragonbone bow could outrange one made of goldenheart. Whatever bow they
carried, all of Balaqs men were sharp-eyed, seasoned veterans who had proved their worth in a
hundred battles, raids, and skirmishes. They proved it again at Griffins Roost.
The castle rose from the shores of Cape Wrath, on a lofty crag of dark red stone surrounded on
three sides by the surging waters of Shipbreaker Bay. Its only approach was defended by a gatehouse,
behind which lay the long bare ridge the Conningtons called the griffins throat. To force the throat
could be a bloody business, since the ridge exposed the attackers to the spears, stones, and arrows of
defenders in the two round towers that flanked the castles main gates. And once they reached those
gates, the men inside could pour down boiling oil on their heads. Griff expected to lose a hundred men,
perhaps more.
They lost four.
The woods had been allowed to encroach on the field beyond the gatehouse, so Franklyn
Flowers was able to use the brush for concealment and lead his men within twenty yards of the gates
before emerging from the trees with the ram theyd fashioned back at camp. The crash of wood on
wood brought two men to the battlements; Black Balaqs archers took down both of them before they
could rub the sleep out of their eyes. The gate turned out to be closed but not barred; it gave way at the
second blow, and Ser Franklyns men were halfway up the throat before a warhorn sounded the alarum
from the castle proper.
The first raven took flight as their grapnels were arcing above the curtain wall, the second a few
moments later. Neither bird had flown a hundred yards before an arrow took it down. A guard inside
dumped down a bucket of oil on the first men to reach the gates, but as hed had no time to heat it, the
bucket caused more damage than its contents. Swords were soon ringing in half a dozen places along
the battlements. The men of the Golden Company clambered through the merlons and raced along the
wallwalks, shouting A griffin! A griffin!, the ancient battle cry of House Connington, which must have
left the defenders even more confused.
It was over within minutes. Griff rode up the throat on a white courser beside Homeless Harry
Strickland. As they neared the castle, he saw a third raven flap from the maesters tower, only to be
feathered by Black Balaq himself. No more messages, he told Ser Franklyn Flowers in the yard. The
next thing to come flying from the maesters tower was the maester. The way his arms were flapping, he
might have been mistaken for another bird.
That was the end of all resistance. What guards remained had thrown down their weapons. And
quick as that, Griffins Roost was his again, and Jon Connington was once more a lord.
Ser Franklyn, he said, go through the keep and kitchens and roust out everyone you find.
Malo, do the same with the maesters tower and the armory. Ser Brendel, the stables, sept, and
barracks. Bring them out into the yard, and try not to kill anyone who does not insist on dying. We want
to win the stormlands, and we wont do that with slaughter. Be sure you look under the altar of the

Mother, theres a hidden stair there that leads down to a secret bolt-hole. And another under the
northwest tower that goes straight down to the sea. No one is to escape.
They wont, mlord, promised Franklyn Flowers.
Connington watched them dash off, then beckoned to the Halfmaester. Haldon, take charge of
the rookery. Ill have messages to send out tonight.
Let us hope they left some ravens for us.
Even Homeless Harry was impressed by the swiftness of their victory. I never thought that it
would be so easy, the captain-general said, as they walked into the great hall to have a look at the
carved and gilded Griffin Seat where fifty generations of Conningtons had sat and ruled.
It will get harder. So far we have taken them unawares. That cannot last forever, even if Black
Balaq brings down every raven in the realm.
Strickland studied the faded tapestries on the walls, the arched windows with their myriad
diamond-shaped panes of red and white glass, the racks of spears and swords and warhammers. Let
them come. This place can stand against twenty times our number, so long as we are well provisioned.
And you say there is a way in and out by sea?
Below. A hidden cove beneath the crag, which appears only when the tide is out. But
Connington had no intention of letting them come. Griffins Roost was strong but small, and so long as
they sat here they would seem small as well. But there was another castle nearby, vastly larger and
impregnable. Take that, and the realm will shake. You must excuse me, Captain-General. My lord father
is buried beneath the sept, and it has been too many years since last I prayed for him.
Of course, my lord.
Yet when they parted, Jon Connington did not go to the sept. Instead his steps led him up to the
roof of the east tower, the tallest at Griffins Roost. As he climbed he remembered past ascentsa
hundred with his lord father, who liked to stand and look out over woods and crags and sea and know
that all he saw belonged to House Connington, and one (only one!) with Rhaegar Targaryen. Prince
Rhaegar was returning from Dorne, and he and his escort had lingered here a fortnight. He was so young
then, and I was younger. Boys, the both of us. At the welcoming feast, the prince had taken up his
silver-stringed harp and played for them. A song of love and doom, Jon Connington recalled, and every
woman in the hall was weeping when he put down the harp. Not the men, of course. Particularly not his
own father, whose only love was land. Lord Armond Connington spent the entire evening trying to win
the prince to his side in his dispute with Lord Morrigen.
The door to the roof of the tower was stuck so fast that it was plain no one had opened it in
years. He had to put his shoulder to it to force it open. But when Jon Connington stepped out onto the
high battlements, the view was just as intoxicating as he remembered: the crag with its wind-carved
rocks and jagged spires, the sea below growling and worrying at the foot of the castle like some restless

beast, endless leagues of sky and cloud, the wood with its autumnal colors. Your fathers lands are
beautiful, Prince Rhaegar had said, standing right where Jon was standing now. And the boy hed been
had replied, One day they will all be mine. As if that could impress a prince who was heir to the entire
realm, from the Arbor to the Wall.
Griffins Roost had been his, eventually, if only for a few short years. From here, Jon Connington
had ruled broad lands extending many leagues to the west, north, and south, just as his father and his
fathers father had before him. But his father and his fathers father had never lost their lands. He had. I
rose too high, loved too hard, dared too much. I tried to grasp a star, overreached, and fell.
After the Battle of the Bells, when Aerys Targaryen had stripped him of his titles and sent him
into exile in a mad fit of ingratitude and suspicion, the lands and lordship had remained within House
Connington, passing to his cousin Ser Ronald, the man whom Jon had made his castellan when he went
to Kings Landing to attend Prince Rhaegar. Robert Baratheon had completed the destruction of the
griffins after the war. Cousin Ronald was permitted to retain his castle and his head, but he lost his
lordship, thereafter being merely the Knight of Griffins Roost, and nine-tenths of his lands were taken
from him and parceled out to neighbor lords who had supported Roberts claim.
Ronald Connington had died years before. The present Knight of Griffins Roost, his son Ronnet,
was said to be off at war in the riverlands. That was for the best. In Jon Conningtons experience, men
would fight for things they felt were theirs, even things theyd gained by theft. He did not relish the
notion of celebrating his return by killing one of his own kin. Red Ronnets sire had been quick to take
advantage of his lord cousins downfall, true, but his son had been a child at the time. Jon Connington
did not even hate the late Ser Ronald as much as he might have. The fault was his.
He had lost it all at Stoney Sept, in his arrogance.
Robert Baratheon had been hiding somewhere in the town, wounded and alone. Jon
Connington had known that, and he had also known that Roberts head upon a spear would have put an
end to the rebellion, then and there. He was young and full of pride. How not? King Aerys had named
him Hand and given him an army, and he meant to prove himself worthy of that trust, of Rhaegars love.
He would slay the rebel lord himself and carve a place out for himself in all the histories of the Seven
Kingdoms.
And so he swept down on Stoney Sept, closed off the town, and began a search. His knights
went house to house, smashed in every door, peered into every cellar. He had even sent men crawling
through the sewers, yet somehow Robert still eluded him. The townsfolk were hiding him. They moved
him from one secret bolt-hole to the next, always one step ahead of the kings men. The whole town
was a nest of traitors. At the end they had the usurper hidden in a brothel. What sort of king was that,
who would hide behind the skirts of women? Yet whilst the search dragged on, Eddard Stark and Hoster
Tully came down upon the town with a rebel army. Bells and battle followed, and Robert emerged from
his brothel with a blade in hand, and almost slew Jon on the steps of the old sept that gave the town its
name.

For years afterward, Jon Connington told himself that he was not to blame, that he had done all
that any man could do. His soldiers searched every hole and hovel, he offered pardons and rewards, he
took hostages and hung them in crow cages and swore that they would have neither food nor drink until
Robert was delivered to him. All to no avail. Tywin Lannister himself could have done no more, he had
insisted one night to Blackheart, during his first year of exile.
There is where youre wrong, Myles Toyne had replied. Lord Tywin would not have bothered
with a search. He would have burned that town and every living creature in it. Men and boys, babes at
the breast, noble knights and holy septons, pigs and whores, rats and rebels, he would have burned
them all. When the fires guttered out and only ash and cinders remained, he would have sent his men in
to find the bones of Robert Baratheon. Later, when Stark and Tully turned up with their host, he would
have offered pardons to the both of them, and they would have accepted and turned for home with
their tails between their legs.
He was not wrong, Jon Connington reflected, leaning on the battlements of his forebears. I
wanted the glory of slaying Robert in single combat, and I did not want the name of butcher. So Robert
escaped me and cut down Rhaegar on the Trident. I failed the father, he said, but I will not fail the
son.
By the time Connington made his descent, his men had gathered the castle garrison and
surviving smallfolk together in the yard. Though Ser Ronnet was indeed off north somewhere with Jaime
Lannister, Griffins Roost was not quite bereft of griffins. Amongst the prisoners were Ronnets younger
brother Raymund, his sister Alynne, and his natural son, a fierce red-haired boy they called Ronald
Storm. All would make for useful hostages if and when Red Ronnet should return to try and take back
the castle that his father had stolen. Connington ordered them confined to the west tower, under guard.
The girl began to cry at that, and the bastard boy tried to bite the spearman closest to him. Stop it, the
both of you, he snapped at them. No harm will come to any of you unless Red Ronnet proves an utter
fool.
Only a few of the captives had been in service here when Jon Connington had last been lord: a
grizzled serjeant, blind in one eye; a couple of the washerwomen; a groom who had been a stableboy
during Roberts Rebellion; the cook, who had grown enormously fat; the castle armorer. Griff had let his
beard grow out during the voyage, for the first time in many years, and to his surprise it had come in
mostly red, though here and there ash showed amidst the fire. Clad in a long red-and-white tunic
embroidered with the twin griffins of his House, counterchanged and combatant, he looked an older,
sterner version of the young lord who had been Prince Rhaegars friend and companion  but the men
and women of Griffins Roost still looked at him with strangers eyes.
Some of you will know me, he told them. The rest will learn. I am your rightful lord, returned
from exile. My enemies have told you I am dead. Those tales are false, as you can see. Serve me as
faithfully as you have served my cousin, and no harm need come to any of you.

He brought them forward one by one, asked each man his name, then bid them kneel and swear
him their allegiance. It all went swiftly. The soldiers of the garrisononly four had survived the attack,
the old serjeant and three boyslaid their swords at his feet. No one balked. No one died.
That night in the great hall the victors feasted on roast meats and fresh-caught fish, washed
down with rich red wines from the castle cellars. Jon Connington presided from the Griffins Seat,
sharing the high table with Homeless Harry Strickland, Black Balaq, Franklyn Flowers, and the three
young griffins they had taken captive. The children were of his blood and he felt that he should know
them, but when the bastard boy announced, My fathers going to kill you, he decided that his
knowledge was sufficient, ordered them back to their cells, and excused himself.
Haldon Halfmaester had been absent from the feast. Lord Jon found him in the maesters tower,
bent over a pile of parchments, with maps spread out all around him. Hoping to determine where the
rest of the company might be? Connington asked him.
Would that I could, my lord.
Ten thousand men had sailed from Volon Therys, with all their weapons, horses, elephants. Not
quite half that number had turned up thus far on Westeros, at or near their intended landing site, a
deserted stretch of coast on the edge of the rainwood  lands that Jon Connington knew well, as they
had once been his.
Only a few years ago, he would never have dared attempt a landing on Cape Wrath; the storm
lords were too fiercely loyal to House Baratheon and to King Robert. But with both Robert and his
brother Renly slain, everything was changed. Stannis was too harsh and cold a man to inspire much in
the way of loyalty, even if he had not been half a world away, and the stormlands had little reason to
love House Lannister. And Jon Connington was not without his own friends here. Some of the older lords
will still remember me, and their sons will have heard the stories. And every man of them will know of
Rhaegar, and his young son whose head was smashed against a cold stone wall.
Fortunately his own ship had been one of the first to reach their destination. Then it had only
been a matter of establishing a campsite, assembling his men as they came ashore and moving quickly,
before the local lordlings had any inkling of their peril. And there the Golden Company had proved its
mettle. The chaos that would inevitably have delayed such a march with a hastily assembled host of
household knights and local levies had been nowhere in evidence. These were the heirs of Bittersteel,
and discipline was mothers milk to them.
By this time on the morrow we ought to hold three castles, he said. The force that had taken
Griffins Roost represented a quarter of their available strength; Ser Tristan Rivers had set off
simultaneously for the seat of House Morrigen at Crows Nest, and Laswell Peake for Rain House, the
stronghold of the Wyldes, each with a force of comparable size. The rest of their men had remained in
camp to guard their landing site and prince, under the command of the companys Volantene
paymaster, Gorys Edoryen. Their numbers would continue to swell, one hoped; more ships were
straggling in every day. We still have too few horses.

And no elephants, the Halfmaester reminded him. Not one of the great cogs carrying the
elephants had turned up yet. They had last seen them at Lys, before the storm that had scattered half
the fleet. Horses can be found in Westeros. Elephants
do not matter. The great beasts would be useful in a pitched battle, no doubt, but it would
be some time before they had the strength to face their foes in the field. Have those parchments told
you anything of use?
Oh, much and more, my lord. Haldon gave him a thin smile. The Lannisters make enemies
easily but seem to have a harder time keeping friends. Their alliance with the Tyrells is fraying, to judge
from what I read here. Queen Cersei and Queen Margaery are fighting over the little king like two
bitches with a chicken bone, and both have been accused of treason and debauchery. Mace Tyrell has
abandoned his siege of Storms End to march back to Kings Landing and save his daughter, leaving only
a token force behind to keep Stanniss men penned up inside the castle.
Connington sat. Tell me more.
In the north the Lannisters are relying on the Boltons and in the riverlands upon the Freys, both
houses long renowned for treachery and cruelty. Lord Stannis Baratheon remains in open rebellion and
the ironborn of the islands have raised up a king as well. No one ever seems to mention the Vale, which
suggests to me that the Arryns have taken no part in any of this.
And Dorne? The Vale was far away; Dorne was close. Prince Dorans younger son has been
betrothed to Myrcella Baratheon, which would suggest that the Dornishmen have thrown in with House
Lannister, but they have an army in the Boneway and another in the Princes Pass, just waiting 
Waiting. He frowned. For what? Without Daenerys and her dragons, Dorne was central to
their hopes. Write Sunspear. Doran Martell must know that his sisters son is still alive and has come
home to claim his fathers throne.
As you say, my lord. The Halfmaester glanced at another parchment. We could scarcely have
timed our landing better. We have potential friends and allies at every hand.
But no dragons, said Jon Connington, so to win these allies to our cause, we must needs have
something to offer them.
Gold and land are the traditional incentives.
Would that we had either. Promises of land and promises of gold may suffice for some, but
Strickland and his men will expect first claim on the choicest fields and castles, those that were taken
from their forebears when they fled into exile. No.
My lord does have one prize to offer, Haldon Halfmaester pointed out. Prince Aegons hand.
A marriage alliance, to bring some great House to our banners.

A bride for our bright prince. Jon Connington remembered Prince Rhaegars wedding all too well.
Elia was never worthy of him. She was frail and sickly from the first, and childbirth only left her weaker.
After the birth of Princess Rhaenys, her mother had been bedridden for half a year, and Prince Aegons
birth had almost been the death of her. She would bear no more children, the maesters told Prince
Rhaegar afterward.
Daenerys Targaryen may yet come home one day, Connington told the Halfmaester. Aegon
must be free to marry her.
My lord knows best, said Haldon. In that case, we might consider offering potential friends a
lesser prize.
What would you suggest?
You. You are unwed. A great lord, still virile, with no heirs except these cousins we have just
now dispossessed, the scion of an ancient House with a fine stout castle and wide, rich lands that will no
doubt be restored and perhaps expanded by a grateful king, once we have triumphed. You have a name
as a warrior, and as King Aegons Hand you will speak with his voice and rule this realm in all but name. I
would think that many an ambitious lord might be eager to wed his daughter to such a man. Even,
perhaps, the prince of Dorne.
Jon Conningtons answer was a long cold stare. There were times when the Halfmaester vexed
him almost as much as that dwarf had. I think not. Death is creeping up my arm. No man must ever
know, nor any wife. He got back to his feet. Prepare the letter to Prince Doran.
As my lord commands.
Jon Connington slept that night in the lords chambers, in the bed that had once been his
fathers, beneath a dusty canopy of red-and-white velvet. He woke at dawn to the sound of falling rain
and the timid knock of a serving man anxious to learn how his new lord would break his fast. Boiled
eggs, fried bread, and beans. And a jug of wine. The worst wine in the cellar.
The  the worst, mlord?
You heard me.
When the food and wine had been brought up, he barred the door, emptied the jug into a bowl,
and soaked his hand in it. Vinegar soaks and vinegar baths were the treatment Lady Lemore had
prescribed for the dwarf, when she feared he might have greyscale, but asking for a jug of vinegar each
morning would give the game away. Wine would need to serve, though he saw no sense in wasting a
good vintage. The nails on all four fingers were black now, though not yet on his thumb. On the middle
finger, the grey had crept up past the second knuckle. I should hack them off, he thought, but how would
I explain two missing fingers? He dare not let the greyscale become known. Queer as it seemed, men
who would cheerfully face battle and risk death to rescue a companion would abandon that same

companion in a heartbeat if he were known to have greyscale. I should have let the damned dwarf
drown.
Later that day, garbed and gloved once more, Connington made an inspection of the castle and
sent word to Homeless Harry Strickland and his captains to join him for a war council. Nine of them
assembled in the solar: Connington and Strickland, Haldon Halfmaester, Black Balaq, Ser Franklyn
Flowers, Malo Jayn, Ser Brendel Byrne, Dick Cole, and Lymond Pease. The Halfmaester had good tidings.
Words reached the camp from Marq Mandrake. The Volantenes put him ashore on what turned out to
be Estermont, with close to five hundred men. Hes taken Greenstone.
Estermont was an island off Cape Wrath, never one of their objectives. The damned Volantenes
are so eager to be rid of us they are dumping us ashore on any bit of land they see, said Franklyn
Flowers. Ill wager you that weve got lads scattered all over half the bloody Stepstones too.
With my elephants, Harry Strickland said, in a mournful tone. He missed his elephants, did
Homeless Harry.
Mandrake had no archers with him, said Lymond Pease. Do we know if Greenstone got off
any ravens before it fell?
I expect they did, said Jon Connington, but what messages would they have carried? At best,
some garbled account of raiders from the sea. Even before they had sailed from Volon Therys, he had
instructed his captains to show no banners during these first attacksnot Prince Aegons three-headed
dragon, nor his own griffins, nor the skulls and golden battle standards of the company. Let the
Lannisters suspect Stannis Baratheon, pirates from the Stepstones, outlaws out of the woods, or
whoever else they cared to blame. If the reports that reached Kings Landing were confused and
contradictory, so much the better. The slower the Iron Throne was to react, the longer they would have
to gather their strength and bring allies to the cause. There should be ships on Estermont. It is an island.
Haldon, send word to Mandrake to leave a garrison behind and bring the rest of his men over to Cape
Wrath, along with any noble captives.
As you command, my lord. House Estermont has blood ties to both kings, as it happens. Good
hostages.
Good ransoms, said Homeless Harry, happily. It is time we sent for Prince Aegon as well,
Lord Jon announced.
He will be safer here behind the walls of Griffins Roost than back at camp.
Ill send a rider, said Franklyn Flowers, but the lad wont much like the idea of staying safe, I
tell you that. He wants to be in the thick o things.
So did we all at his age, Lord Jon thought, remembering. Has the time come to raise his
banner? asked Pease. Not yet. Let Kings Landing think this is no more than an exile lord coming home
with some hired swords to reclaim his birthright. An old familiar story, that. I will even write King

Tommen, stating as much and asking for a pardon and the restoration of my lands and titles. That will
give them something to chew over for a while. And whilst they dither, we will send out word secretly to
likely friends in the stormlands and the Reach. And Dorne. That was the crucial step. Lesser lords might
join their cause for fear of harm or hope of gain, but only the Prince of Dorne had the power to defy
House Lannister and its allies. Above all else, we must have Doran Martell.
Small chance of that, said Strickland. The Dornishman is scared of his own shadow. Not what
you call daring.
No more than you. Prince Doran is a cautious man, thats true. He will never join us unless he is
convinced that we will win. So to persuade him we must show our strength.
If Peake and Rivers are successful, we will control the better part of Cape Wrath, argued
Strickland. Four castles in as many days, thats a splendid start, but we are still only at half strength. We
need to wait for the rest of my men. We are missing horses as well, and the elephants. Wait, I say.
Gather our power, win some small lords to our cause, let Lysono Maar dispatch his spies to learn what
we can learn of our foes.
Connington gave the plump captain-general a cool look. This man is no Blackheart, no
Bittersteel, no Maelys. He would wait until all seven hells were frozen if he could rather than risk another
bout of blisters. We did not cross half the world to wait. Our best chance is to strike hard and fast,
before Kings Landing knows who we are. I mean to take Storms End. A nigh-impregnable stronghold,
and Stannis Baratheons last foothold in the south. Once taken, it will give us a secure fastness to which
we may retreat at need, and winning it will prove our strength.
The captains of the Golden Company exchanged glances. If Storms End is still held by men
loyal to Stannis, we will be taking it from him, not the Lannisters, objected Brendel Byrne. Why not
make common cause with him against the Lannisters?
Stannis is Roberts brother, of that same ilk that brought down House Targaryen, Jon
Connington reminded him. Moreover, he is a thousand leagues away, with whatever meagre strength
he still commands. The whole realm lies between us. It would take half a year just to reach him, and he
has little and less to offer us.
If Storms End is so impregnable, how do you mean to take it? asked Malo.
By guile.
Homeless Harry Strickland disagreed. We should wait.
We shall. Jon Connington stood. Ten days. No longer. It will take that long to prepare. On the
morning of the eleventh day, we ride for Storms End.
The prince arrived to join them four days later, riding at the head of a column of a hundred
horse, with three elephants lumbering in his rear. Lady Lemore was with him, garbed once more in the

white robes of a septa. Before them went Ser Rolly Duckfield, a snow-white cloak streaming from his
shoulders.
A solid man, and true, Connington thought as he watched Duck dismount, but not worthy of the
Kingsguard. He had tried his best to dissuade the prince from giving Duckfield that cloak, pointing out
that the honor might best be held in reserve for warriors of greater renown whose fealty would add
luster to their cause, and the younger sons of great lords whose support they would need in the coming
struggle, but the boy would not be moved. Duck will die for me if need be, he had said, and thats all I
require in my Kingsguard. The Kingslayer was a warrior of great renown, and the son of a great lord as
well.
At least I convinced him to leave the other six slots open, else Duck might have six ducklings
trailing after him, each more blindingly adequate than the last. Escort His Grace to my solar, he
commanded. At once.
Prince Aegon Targaryen was not near as biddable as the boy Young Griff had been, however.
The better part of an hour had passed before he finally turned up in the solar, with Duck at his side.
Lord Connington, he said, I like your castle.
Your fathers lands are beautiful, he said. His silvery hair was blowing in the wind, and his eyes
were a deep purple, darker than this boys. As do I, Your Grace. Please, be seated. Ser Rolly, well have
no further need of you for now.
No, I want Duck to stay. The prince sat. Weve been talking with Strickland and Flowers. They
told us about this attack on Storms End that youre planning.
Jon Connington did not let his fury show. And did Homeless Harry try to persuade you to delay
it?
He did, actually, the prince said, but I wont. Harrys an old maid, isnt he? You have the right
of it, my lord. I want the attack to go ahead  with one change. I mean to lead it.
THE SACRIFICE
On the village green, the queens men built their pyre.
Or should it be the village white? The snow was knee deep everywhere but where the men had
shoveled it away, to hack holes into the frozen ground with axe and spade and pick. The wind was
swirling from the west, driving still more snow across the frozen surface of the lakes.
You do not want to watch this, Aly Mormont said. No, but I will. Asha Greyjoy was the
krakens daughter, not some pampered maiden who could not bear to look at ugliness.

It had been a dark, cold, hungry day, like the day before and the day before that. They had spent
most of it out on the ice, shivering beside a pair of holes theyd cut in the smaller of the frozen lakes,
with fishing lines clutched in mitten-clumsy hands. Not long ago, they could count on hooking one or
two fish apiece, and wolfswood men more practiced at ice-fishing were pulling up four or five. Today all
that Asha had come back with was a chill that went bone deep. Aly had fared no better. It had been
three days since either of them had caught a fish.
The She-Bear tried again. I do not need to watch this.
It is not you the queens men want to burn. Then go. You have my word, I will not run. Where
would I go? To Winterfell? Asha laughed. Only three days ride, they tell me.
Six queens men were wrestling two enormous pinewood poles into holes six other queens men
had dug out. Asha did not have to ask their purpose. She knew. Stakes. Nightfall would be on them soon,
and the red god must be fed. An offering of blood and fire, the queens men called it, that the Lord of
Light may turn his fiery eye upon us and melt these thrice-cursed snows.
Even in this place of fear and darkness, the Lord of Light protects us, Ser Godry Farring told
the men who gathered to watch as the stakes were hammered down into the holes.
What has your southron god to do with snow? demanded Artos Flint. His black beard was
crusted with ice. This is the wroth of the old gods come upon us. It is them we should appease.
Aye, said Big Bucket Wull. Red Rahloo means nothing here. You will only make the old gods
angry. They are watching from their island.
The crofters village stood between two lakes, the larger dotted with small wooded islands that
punched up through the ice like the frozen fists of some drowned giant. From one such island rose a
weirwood gnarled and ancient, its bole and branches white as the surrounding snows. Eight days ago
Asha had walked out with Aly Mormont to have a closer look at its slitted red eyes and bloody mouth. It
is only sap, shed told herself, the red sap that flows inside these weirwoods. But her eyes were
unconvinced; seeing was believing, and what they saw was frozen blood.
You northmen brought these snows upon us, insisted Corliss Penny. You and your demon
trees. Rhllor will save us.
Rhllor will doom us, said Artos Flint.
A pox on both your gods, thought Asha Greyjoy.
Ser Godry the Giantslayer surveyed the stakes, shoving one to make certain it was firmly placed.
Good. Good. They will serve. Ser Clayton, bring forth the sacrifice.
Ser Clayton Suggs was Godrys strong right hand. Or should it be his withered arm? Asha did not
like Ser Clayton. Where Farring seemed fierce in his devotion to his red god, Suggs was simply cruel. She
had seen him at the nightfires, watching, his lips parted and his eyes avid. It is not the god he loves, it is

the flames, she concluded. When she asked Ser Justin if Suggs had always been that way, he grimaced.
On Dragonstone he would gamble with the torturers and lend them a hand in the questioning of
prisoners, especially if the prisoner were a young woman.
Asha was not surprised. Suggs would take a special delight in burning her, she did not doubt.
Unless the storms let up.
They had been three days from Winterfell for nineteen days. One hundred leagues from
Deepwood Motte to Winterfell. Three hundred miles as the raven flies. But none of them were ravens,
and the storm was unrelenting. Each morning Asha awoke hoping she might see the sun, only to face
another day of snow. The storm had buried every hut and hovel beneath a mound of dirty snow, and the
drifts would soon be deep enough to engulf the longhall too.
And there was no food, beyond their failing horses, fish taken from the lakes (fewer every day),
and whatever meagre sustenance their foragers could find in these cold, dead woods. With the kings
knights and lords claiming the lions share of the horsemeat, little and less remained for the common
men. Small wonder then that they had started eating their own dead.
Asha had been as horrified as the rest when the She-Bear told her that four Peasebury men had
been found butchering one of the late Lord Fells, carving chunks of flesh from his thighs and buttocks as
one of his forearms turned upon a spit, but she could not pretend to be surprised. The four were not the
first to taste human flesh during this grim march, she would wageronly the first to be discovered.
Peaseburys four would pay for their feast with their lives, by the kings decree  and by burning
end the storm, the queens men claimed. Asha Greyjoy put no faith in their red god, yet she prayed they
had the right of that. If not, there would be other pyres, and Ser Clayton Suggs might get his hearts
desire.
The four flesh-eaters were naked when Ser Clayton drove them out, their wrists lashed behind
their backs with leathern cords. The youngest of them wept as he stumbled through the snow. Two
others walked like men already dead, eyes fixed upon the ground. Asha was surprised to see how
ordinary they appeared. Not monsters, she realized, only men.
The oldest of the four had been their serjeant. He alone remained defiant, spitting venom at the
queens men as they prodded him along with their spears. Fuck you all, and fuck your red god too, he
said. You hear me, Farring? Giantslayer? I laughed when your fucking cousin died, Godry. We should
have eaten him too, he smelled so good when they roasted him. I bet the boy was nice and tender.
Juicy. A blow from a spear butt drove the man to his knees but did not silence him. When he rose he
spat out a mouthful of blood and broken teeth and went right on. The cocks the choicest part, all
crisped up on the spit. A fat little sausage. Even as they wrapped the chains around him, he raved on.
Corliss Penny, come over here. What sort of name is Penny? Is that how much your mother charged?
And you, Suggs, you bleeding bastard, you

Ser Clayton never said a word. One quick slash opened the serjeants throat, sending a wash of
blood down his chest.
The weeping man wept harder, his body shaking with each sob. He was so thin that Asha could
count every rib. No, he begged, please, he was dead, he was dead and we was hungry, please 
The serjeant was the clever one, Asha said to Aly Mormont. He goaded Suggs into killing
him. She wondered if the same trick might work twice, should her own turn come.
The four victims were chained up back-to-back, two to a stake. There they hung, three live men
and one dead one, as the Lord of Lights devout stacked split logs and broken branches under their feet,
then doused the piles with lamp oil. They had to be swift about it. The snow was falling heavily, as ever,
and the wood would soon be soaked through.
Where is the king? asked Ser Corliss Penny.
Four days ago, one of the kings own squires had succumbed to cold and hunger, a boy named
Bryen Farring whod been kin to Ser Godry. Stannis Baratheon stood grim-faced by the funeral pyre as
the lads body was consigned to the flames. Afterward the king had retreated to his watchtower. He had
not emerged since  though from time to time His Grace was glimpsed upon the tower roof, outlined
against the beacon fire that burned there night and day. Talking to the red god, some said. Calling out
for Lady Melisandre, insisted others. Either way, it seemed to Asha Greyjoy, the king was lost and crying
out for help.
Canty, go find the king and tell him all is ready, Ser Godry said to the nearest man-at-arms.
The king is here. The voice was Richard Horpes.
Over his armor of plate and mail Ser Richard wore his quilted doublet, blazoned with three
deaths-head moths on a field of ash and bone. King Stannis walked beside him. Behind them, struggling
to keep pace, Arnolf Karstark came hobbling, leaning on his blackthorn cane. Lord Arnolf had found
them eight days past. The northman had brought a son, three grandsons, four hundred spears, two
score archers, a dozen mounted lances, a maester, and a cage of ravens  but only enough provisions to
sustain his own.
Karstark was no lord in truth, Asha had been given to understand, only castellan of Karhold for
as long as the true lord remained a captive of the Lannisters. Gaunt and bent and crooked, with a left
shoulder half a foot higher than his right, he had a scrawny neck, squinty grey eyes, and yellow teeth. A
few white hairs were all that separated him from baldness; his forked beard was equal parts white and
grey, but always ragged. Asha thought there was something sour about his smiles. Yet if the talk was
true, it was Karstark who would hold Winterfell should they take it. Somewhere in the distant past
House Karstark had sprouted from House Stark, and Lord Arnolf had been the first of Eddard Starks
bannermen to declare for Stannis.

So far as Asha knew, the gods of the Karstarks were the old gods of the north, gods they shared
with the Wulls, the Norreys, the Flints, and the other hill clans. She wondered if Lord Arnolf had come to
view the burning at the kings behest, that he might witness the power of the red god for himself.
At the sight of Stannis, two of the men bound to the stakes began to plead for mercy. The king
listened in silence, his jaw clenched. Then he said to Godry Farring, You may begin.
The Giantslayer raised his arms. Lord of Light, hear us.
Lord of Light, defend us, the queens men chanted, for the night is dark and full of terrors.
Ser Godry raised his head toward the darkening sky. We thank you for the sun that warms us
and pray that you will return it to us, Oh lord, that it might light our path to your enemies. Snowflakes
melted on his face. We thank you for the stars that watch over us by night, and pray that you will rip
away this veil that hides them, so we might glory in their sight once more.
Lord of Light, protect us, the queens men prayed, and keep this savage dark at bay.
Ser Corliss Penny stepped forward, clutching the torch with both hands. He swung it about his
head in a circle, fanning the flames. One of the captives began to whimper.
Rhllor, Ser Godry sang, we give you now four evil men. With glad hearts and true, we give
them to your cleansing fires, that the darkness in their souls might be burned away. Let their vile flesh be
seared and blackened, that their spirits might rise free and pure to ascend into the light. Accept their
blood, Oh lord, and melt the icy chains that bind your servants. Hear their pain, and grant strength to our
swords that we might shed the blood of your enemies. Accept this sacrifice, and show us the way to
Winterfell, that we might vanquish the unbelievers.
Lord of Light, accept this sacrifice, a hundred voices echoed. Ser Corliss lit the first pyre with
the torch, then thrust it into the wood at the base of the second. A few wisps of smoke began to rise.
The captives began to cough. The first flames appeared, shy as maidens, darting and dancing from log to
leg. In moments both the stakes were engulfed in fire.
He was dead, the weeping boy screamed, as the flames licked up his legs. We found him
dead  please  we was hungry  The fires reached his balls. As the hair around his cock began to
burn, his pleading dissolved into one long wordless shriek.
Asha Greyjoy could taste the bile in the back of her throat. On the Iron Islands, she had seen
priests of her own people slit the throats of thralls and give their bodies to the sea to honor the
Drowned God. Brutal as that was, this was worse.
Close your eyes, she told herself. Close your ears. Turn away. You do not need to see this. The
queens men were singing some paean of praise for red Rhllor, but she could not hear the words above
the shrieks. The heat of the flames beat against her face, but even so she shivered. The air grew thick

with smoke and the stink of burnt flesh, and one of the bodies still twitched against the red-hot chains
that bound him to the stake.
After a time the screaming stopped.
Wordless, King Stannis walked away, back to the solitude of his watch-tower. Back to his beacon
fire, Asha knew, to search the flames for answers. Arnolf Karstark made to hobble after him, but Ser
Richard Horpe took him by the arm and turned him toward the longhall. The watchers began to drift
away, each to his own fire and whatever meagre supper he might find.
Clayton Suggs sidled up beside her. Did the iron cunt enjoy the show? His breath stank of ale
and onions. He has pig eyes, Asha thought. That was fitting; his shield and surcoat showed a pig with
wings. Suggs pressed his face so close to hers that she could count the blackheads on his nose and said,
The crowd will be even bigger when its you squirming on a stake.
He was not wrong. The wolves did not love her; she was ironborn and must answer for the
crimes of her people, for Moat Cailin and Deepwood Motte and Torrhens Square, for centuries of
reaving along the stony shore, for all Theon did at Winterfell.
Unhand me, ser. Every time Suggs spoke to her, it left her yearning for her axes. Asha was as
good a finger dancer as any man on the isles and had ten fingers to prove it. If only I could dance with
this one. Some men had faces that cried out for a beard. Ser Claytons face cried out for an axe between
the eyes. But she was axeless here, so the best that she could do was try to wrench away. That just
made Ser Clayton grasp her all the tighter, gloved fingers digging into her arm like iron claws.
My lady asked you to let her go, said Aly Mormont. You would do well to listen, ser. Lady
Asha is not for burning.
She will be, Suggs insisted. We have harbored this demon worshiper amongst us too long.
He released his grip on Ashas arm all the same. One did not provoke the She-Bear needlessly.
That was the moment Justin Massey chose to appear. The king has other plans for his prize
captive, he said, with his easy smile. His cheeks were red from the cold.
The king? Or you? Suggs snorted his contempt. Scheme all you like, Massey. Shell still be for
the fire, her and her kings blood. Theres power in kings blood, the red woman used to say. Power to
please our lord.
Let Rhllor be content with the four we just sent him.
Four baseborn churls. A beggars offering. Scum like that will never stop the snow. She might.
The She-Bear spoke. And if you burn her and the snows still fall, what then? Who will you burn
next? Me?

Asha could hold her tongue no longer. Why not Ser Clayton? Perhaps Rhllor would like one of
his own. A faithful man who will sing his praises as the flames lick at his cock.
Ser Justin laughed. Suggs was less amused. Enjoy your giggle, Massey. If the snow keeps falling,
we will see who is laughing then. He glanced at the dead men on their stakes, smiled, and went off to
join Ser Godry and the other queens men.
My champion, Asha said to Justin Massey. He deserved that much, whatever his motives.
Thank you for the rescue, ser.
It will not win you friends amongst the queens men, said the She-Bear. Have you lost your
faith in red Rhllor?
I have lost faith in more than that, Massey said, his breath a pale mist in the air, but I still
believe in supper. Will you join me, my ladies?
Aly Mormont shook her head. I have no appetite.
Nor I. But you had best choke down some horsemeat all the same, or you may soon wish you
had. We had eight hundred horses when we marched from Deepwood Motte. Last night the count was
sixty-four.
That did not shock her. Almost all of their big destriers had failed, including Masseys own. Most
of their palfreys were gone as well. Even the garrons of the northmen were faltering for want of fodder.
But what did they need horses for? Stannis was no longer marching anywhere. The sun and moon and
stars had been gone so long that Asha was starting to wonder whether she had dreamed them. I will
eat.
Aly shook her head. Not me.
Let me look after Lady Asha, then, Ser Justin told her. You have my word, I shall not permit
her to escape.
The She-Bear gave her grudging assent, deaf to the japery in his tone. They parted there, Aly to
her tent, she and Justin Massey to the longhall. It was not far, but the drifts were deep, the wind was
gusty, and Ashas feet were blocks of ice. Her ankle stabbed at her with every step.
Small and mean as it was, the longhall was the largest building in the village, so the lords and
captains had taken it for themselves, whilst Stannis settled into the stone watchtower by the lakeshore.
A pair of guardsmen flanked its door, leaning on tall spears. One lifted the greased door flap for Massey,
and Ser Justin escorted Asha through to the blessed warmth within.
Benches and trestle tables ran along either side of the hall, with room for fifty men  though
twice that number had squeezed themselves inside. A fire trench had been dug down the middle of the
earthen floor, with a row of smokeholes in the roof above. The wolves had taken to sitting on one side
of the trench, the knights and southron lords upon the other.

The southerners looked a sorry lot, Asha thoughtgaunt and hollow-cheeked, some pale and
sick, others with red and wind-scoured faces. By contrast the northmen seemed hale and healthy, big
ruddy men with beards as thick as bushes, clad in fur and iron. They might be cold and hungry too, but
the marching had gone easier for them, with their garrons and their bear-paws.
Asha peeled off her fur mittens, wincing as she flexed her fingers. Pain shot up her legs as her
half-frozen feet began to thaw in the warmth. The crofters had left behind a good supply of peat when
they fled, so the air was hazy with smoke and the rich, earthy smell of burning turf. She hung her cloak
on a peg inside the door after shaking off the snow that clung to it.
Ser Justin found them places on the bench and fetched supper for the both of themale and
chunks of horsemeat, charred black outside and red within. Asha took a sip of ale and fell upon the
horse flesh. The portion was smaller than the last shed tasted, but her belly still rumbled at the smell of
it. My thanks, ser, she said, as blood and grease ran down her chin.
Justin. I insist. Massey cut his own meat into chunks and stabbed one with his dagger.
Down the table, Will Foxglove was telling the men around him that Stannis would resume his
march on Winterfell three days hence. Hed had it from the lips of one of the grooms who tended the
kings horses. His Grace has seen victory in his fires, Foxglove said, a victory that will be sung of for a
thousand years in lords castle and peasants hut alike.
Justin Massey looked up from his horsemeat. The cold count last night reached eighty. He
pulled a piece of gristle from his teeth and flicked it to the nearest dog. If we march, we will die by the
hundreds.
We will die by the thousands if we stay here, said Ser Humfrey Clifton. Press on or die, I say.
Press on and die, I answer. And if we reach Winterfell, what then? How do we take it? Half our
men are so weak they can scarce put one foot before another. Will you set them to scaling walls?
Building siege towers?
We should remain here until the weather breaks, said Ser Ormund Wylde, a cadaverous old
knight whose nature gave the lie to his name. Asha had heard rumors that some of the men-at-arms
were wagering on which of the great knights and lords would be the next to die. Ser Ormund had
emerged as a clear favorite. And how much coin was placed on me, I wonder? Asha thought. Perhaps
there is still time to put down a wager. Here at least we have some shelter, Wylde was insisting, and
there are fish in the lakes.
Too few fish and too many fishermen, Lord Peasebury said gloomily. He had good reason for
gloom; it was his men Ser Godry had just burned, and there were some in this very hall who had been
heard to say that Peasebury himself surely knew what they were doing and might even have shared in
their feasts.

Hes not wrong, grumbled Ned Woods, one of the scouts from Deepwood. Noseless Ned, he
was called; frostbite had claimed the tip of his nose two winters past. Woods knew the wolfwood as well
as any man alive. Even the kings proudest lords had learned to listen when he spoke. I know them
lakes. You been on them like maggots on a corpse, hundreds o you. Cut so many holes in the ice its a
bloody wonder more havent fallen through. Out by the island, theres places look like a cheese the rats
been at. He shook his head. Lakes are done. You fished them out.
All the more reason to march, insisted Humfrey Clifton. If death is our fate, let us die with
swords in hand.
It was the same argument as last night and the night before. Press on and die, stay here and die,
fall back and die.
Feel free to perish as you wish, Humfrey, said Justin Massey. Myself, I would sooner live to
see another spring.
Some might call that craven, Lord Peasebury replied. Better a craven than a cannibal.
Peaseburys face twisted in sudden fury. You
Death is part of war, Justin. Ser Richard Horpe stood inside the door, his dark hair damp with
melting snow. Those who march with us will have a share in all the plunder we take from Bolton and
his bastard, and a greater share of glory undying. Those too weak to march must fend for themselves.
But you have my word, we shall send food once we have taken Winterfell.
You will not take Winterfell!
Aye, we will, came a cackle from the high table, where Arnolf Karstark sat with his son Arthor
and three grandsons. Lord Arnolf shoved himself up, a vulture rising from its prey. One spotted hand
clutched at his sons shoulder for support. Well take it for the Ned and for his daughter. Aye, and for
the Young Wolf too, him who was so cruelly slaughtered. Me and mine will show the way, if need be.
Ive said as much to His Good Grace the king. March, I said, and before the moon can turn, well all be
bathing in the blood of Freys and Boltons.
Men began to stamp their feet, to pound their fists against the tabletop. Almost all were
northmen, Asha noted. Across the fire trench, the south-ron lords sat silent on the benches.
Justin Massey waited until the uproar had died away. Then he said, Your courage is admirable,
Lord Karstark, but courage will not breach the walls of Winterfell. How do you mean to take the castle,
pray? With snowballs?
One of Lord Arnolfs grandsons gave answer. Well cut down trees for rams to break the gates.
And die.
Another grandson made himself heard. Well make ladders, scale the walls.

And die.
Up spoke Arthor Karstark, Lord Arnolfs younger son. Well raise siege towers.
And die, and die, and die. Ser Justin rolled his eyes. Gods be good, are all you Karstarks
mad?
Gods? said Richard Horpe. You forget yourself, Justin. We have but one god here. Speak not
of demons in this company. Only the Lord of Light can save us now. Wouldnt you agree? He put his
hand upon the hilt of his sword, as if for emphasis, but his eyes never left the face of Justin Massey.
Beneath that gaze, Ser Justin wilted. The Lord of Light, aye. My faith runs as deep as your own,
Richard, you know that.
It is your courage I question, Justin, not your faith. You have preached defeat every step of the
way since we rode forth from Deepwood Motte. It makes me wonder whose side you are on.
A flush crept up Masseys neck. I will not stay here to be insulted. He wrenched his damp cloak
down from the wall so hard that Asha heard it tear, then stalked past Horpe and through the door. A
blast of cold air blew through the hall, raising ashes from the fire trench and fanning its flames a little
brighter.
Broken quick as that, thought Asha. My champion is made of suet. Even so, Ser Justin was one of
the few who might object should the queens men try to burn her. So she rose to her feet, donned her
own cloak, and followed him out into the blizzard.
She was lost before she had gone ten yards. Asha could see the beacon fire burning atop the
watchtower, a faint orange glow floating in the air. Elsewise the village was gone. She was alone in a
white world of snow and silence, plowing through snowdrifts as high as her thighs. Justin? she called.
There was no answer. Somewhere to her left she heard a horse whicker. The poor thing sounds
frightened. Perhaps he knows that hes to be tomorrows supper. Asha pulled her cloak about her tightly.
She blundered back onto the village green unknowing. The pinewood stakes still stood, charred
and scorched but not burned through. The chains about the dead had cooled by now, she saw, but still
held the corpses fast in their iron embrace. A raven was perched atop one, pulling at the tatters of
burned flesh that clung to its blackened skull. The blowing snow had covered the ashes at the base of
the pyre and crept up the dead mans leg as far as his ankle. The old gods mean to bury him, Asha
thought. This was no work of theirs.
Take a good long gander, cunt, the deep voice of Clayton Suggs said, behind her. Youll look
just as pretty once youre roasted. Tell me, can squids scream?
God of my fathers, if you can hear me in your watery halls beneath the waves, grant me just one
small throwing axe. The Drowned God did not answer. He seldom did. That was the trouble with gods.
Have you seen Ser Justin?

That prancing fool? What do you want with him, cunt? If its a fuck you need, Im more a man
than Massey.
Cunt again? It was odd how men like Suggs used that word to demean women when it was the
only part of a woman they valued. And Suggs was worse than Middle Liddle. When he says the word, he
means it. Your king gelds men for rape, she reminded him.
Ser Clayton chuckled. The kings half-blind from staring into fires. But have no fear, cunt, Ill not
rape you. Id need to kill you after, and Id sooner see you burn.
Theres that horse again. Do you hear that?
Hear what?
A horse. No, horses. More than one. She turned her head, listening. The snow did queer things
to sound. It was hard to know which direction it had come from.
Is this some squid game? I dont hear Suggs scowled. Bloody hell. Riders. He fumbled at
his sword belt, his hands clumsy in their fur-and-leather gloves, and finally succeeded in ripping his
longsword from its scabbard.
By then the riders were upon them.
They emerged from the storm like a troop of wraiths, big men on small horses, made even
bigger by the bulky furs they wore. Swords rode on their hips, singing their soft steel song as they rattled
in their scabbards. Asha saw a battle-axe strapped to one mans saddle, a warhammer on anothers
back. Shields they bore as well, but so obscured by snow and ice that the arms upon them could not be
read. For all her layers of wool and fur and boiled leather, Asha felt naked standing there. A horn, she
thought, I need a horn to rouse the camp.
Run, you stupid cunt, Ser Clayton shouted. Run warn the king. Lord Bolton is upon us. A
brute he might have been, but Suggs did not want for courage. Sword in hand, he strode through the
snow, putting himself between the riders and the kings tower, its beacon glimmering behind him like
the orange eye of some strange god. Who goes there? Halt! Halt!
The lead rider reined up before him. Behind were others, perhaps as many as a score. Asha had
no time to count them. Hundreds more might be out there in the storm, coming hard upon their heels.
Roose Boltons entire host might be descending on them, hidden by darkness and swirling snow. These,
though 
They are too many to be scouts and too few to make a vanguard. And two were all in black.
Nights Watch, she realized suddenly. Who are you? she called.
Friends, a half-familiar voice replied. We looked for you at Winterfell, but found only
Crowfood Umber beating drums and blowing horns. It took some time to find you. The rider vaulted

from his saddle, pulled back his hood, and bowed. So thick was his beard, and so crusted with ice, that
for a moment Asha did not know him. Then it came. Tris? she said.
My lady. Tristifer Botley took a knee. The Maid is here as well. Roggon, Grimtongue, Fingers,
Rook  six of us, all those fit enough to ride. Cromm died of his wounds.
What is this? Ser Clayton Suggs demanded. Youre one of hers? How did you get loose of
Deepwoods dungeons?
Tris rose and brushed the snow from his knees. Sybelle Glover was offered a handsome ransom
for our freedom and chose to accept it in the name of the king.
What ransom? Who would pay good coin for sea scum?
I did, ser. The speaker came forward on his garron. He was very tall, very thin, so long-legged
that it was a wonder his feet did not drag along the ground. I had need of a strong escort to see me
safely to the king, and Lady Sybelle had need of fewer mouths to feed. A scarf concealed the tall mans
features, but atop his head was perched the queerest hat Asha had seen since the last time she had
sailed to Tyrosh, a brimless tower of some soft fabric, like three cylinders stacked one atop the other. I
was given to understand that I might find King Stannis here. It is most urgent that I speak with him at
once.
And who in seven stinking hells are you?
The tall man slid gracefully from his garron, removed his peculiar hat, and bowed. I have the
honor to be Tycho Nestoris, a humble servant of the Iron Bank of Braavos.
Of all the strange things that might have come riding out of the night, the last one Asha Greyjoy
would ever have expected was a Braavosi banker. It was too absurd. She had to laugh. King Stannis has
taken the watch-tower for his seat. Ser Clayton will be pleased to show you to him, Im sure.
That would be most kind. Time is of the essence. The banker studied her with shrewd dark
eyes. You are the Lady Asha of House Greyjoy, unless I am mistaken.
I am Asha of House Greyjoy, aye. Opinions differ on whether Im a lady.
The Braavosi smiled. Weve brought a gift for you. He beckoned to the men behind him. We
had expected to find the king at Winterfell. This same blizzard has engulfed the castle, alas. Beneath its
walls we found Mors Umber with a troop of raw green boys, waiting for the kings coming. He gave us
this.
A girl and an old man, thought Asha, as the two were dumped rudely in the snow before her.
The girl was shivering violently, even in her furs. If she had not been so frightened, she might even have
been pretty, though the tip of her nose was black with frostbite. The old man  no one would ever think
him comely. She had seen scarecrows with more flesh. His face was a skull with skin, his hair bone-white
and filthy. And he stank. Just the sight of him filled Asha with revulsion.

He raised his eyes. Sister. See. This time I knew you.
Ashas heart skipped a beat. Theon?
His lips skinned back in what might have been a grin. Half his teeth were gone, and half of those
still left him were broken and splintered. Theon, he repeated. My name is Theon. You have to know
your name.
VICTARION
The sea was black and the moon was silver as the Iron Fleet swept down on the prey.
They sighted her in the narrows between the Isle of Cedars and the rugged hills of the Astapori
hinterlands, just as the black priest Moqorro had said they would. Ghiscari, Longwater Pyke shouted
down from the crows nest. Victarion Greyjoy watched her sail grow larger from the forecastle. Soon he
could make out her oars rising and falling, and the long white wake behind her shining in the moonlight,
like a scar across the sea.
Not a true warship, Victarion realized. A trading galley, and a big one. She would make a fine
prize. He signaled to his captains to give chase. They would board this ship and take her.
The captain of the galley had realized his peril by then. He changed course for the west, making
for the Isle of Cedars, perhaps hoping to shelter in some hidden cove or run his pursuers onto the jagged
rocks along the islands northeast coast. His galley was heavy laden, though, and the ironborn had the
wind. Grief and Iron Victory cut across the quarrys course, whilst swift Sparrowhawk and agile
Fingerdancer swept behind her. Even then the Ghiscari captain did not strike his banners. By the time
Lamentation came alongside the prey, raking her larboard side and splintering her oars, both ships were
so close to the haunted ruins of Ghozai that they could hear the monkeys chattering as the first dawn
light washed over the citys broken pyramids.
Their prize was named Ghiscari Dawn, the galleys captain said when he was delivered to
Victarion in chains. She was out of New Ghis and returning there by way of Yunkai after trading at
Meereen. The man spoke no decent tongue but only a guttural Ghiscari, full of growls and hisses, as ugly
a language as Victarion Greyjoy had ever heard. Moqorro translated the captains words into the
Common Tongue of Westeros. The war for Meereen was won, the captain claimed; the dragon queen
was dead, and a Ghiscari by the name of Hizdak ruled the city now.
Victarion had his tongue torn out for lying. Daenerys Targaryen was not dead, Moqorro assured
him; his red god Rhllor had shown him the queens face in his sacred fires. The captain could not abide
lies, so he had the Ghiscari captain bound hand and foot and thrown overboard, a sacrifice to the
Drowned God. Your red god will have his due, he promised Moqorro, but the seas are ruled by the
Drowned God.

There are no gods but Rhllor and the Other, whose name may not be said. The sorcerer priest
was garbed in somber black, but for a hint of golden thread at collar, cuffs, and hem. There was no red
cloth aboard the Iron Victory, but it was not meet that Moqorro go about in the salt-stained rags he had
been wearing when the Vole fished him from the sea, so Victarion had commanded Tom Tidewood to
sew new robes for him from whatever was at hand, and had even donated some of his own tunics to the
purpose. Of black and gold those were, for the arms of House Greyjoy showed a golden kraken on a
black field, and the banners and sails of their ships displayed the same. The crimson-and-scarlet robes of
the red priests were alien to the ironborn, but Victarion had hoped his men might accept Moqorro more
easily once clad in Greyjoy colors.
He hoped in vain. Clad in black from head to heel, with a mask of red-and-orange flames
tattooed across his face, the priest appeared more sinister than ever. The crew shunned him when he
walked the deck, and men would spit if his shadow chanced to fall upon them. Even the Vole, who had
fished the red priest from the sea, had urged Victarion to give him to the Drowned God.
But Moqorro knew these strange shores in ways the ironborn did not, and secrets of the
dragonkind as well. The Crows Eye keeps wizards, why shouldnt I? His black sorcerer was more puissant
than all of Eurons three, even if you threw them in a pot and boiled them down to one. The Damphair
might disapprove, but Aeron and his pieties were far away.
So Victarion closed his burned hand into a mighty fist, and said, Ghiscari Dawn is no fit name
for a ship of the Iron Fleet. For you, wizard, I shall rename her Red Gods Wroth.
His wizard bowed his head. As the captain says. And the ships of the Iron Fleet numbered
four-and-fifty once again.
The next day a sudden squall descended on them. Moqorro had predicted that as well. When
the rains moved on, three ships were found to have vanished. Victarion had no way to know whether
they had foundered, run aground, or been blown off course. They know where we are going, he told
his crew. If they are still afloat, we will meet again. The iron captain had no time to wait for laggards.
Not with his bride encircled by her enemies. The most beautiful woman in the world has urgent need of
my axe.
Besides, Moqorro assured him that the three ships were not lost. Each night, the sorcerer priest
would kindle a fire on the forecastle of the Iron Victory and stalk around the flames, chanting prayers.
The firelight made his black skin shine like polished onyx, and sometimes Victarion could swear that the
flames tattooed on his face were dancing too, twisting and bending, melting into one another, their
colors changing with every turn of the priests head.
The black priest is calling demons down on us, one oarsman was heard to say. When that was
reported to Victarion, he had the man scourged until his back was blood from shoulders to buttocks. So
when Moqorro said, Your lost lambs will return to the flock off the isle called Yaros, the captain said,
Pray that they do, priest. Or you may be the next to taste the whip.

The sea was blue and green and the sun blazing down from an empty blue sky when the Iron
Fleet took its second prize, in the waters north and west of Astapor.
This time it was a Myrish cog named Dove, on her way to Yunkai by way of New Ghis with a
cargo of carpets, sweet green wines, and Myrish lace. Her captain owned a Myrish eye that made far-off
things look closetwo glass lenses in a series of brass tubes, cunningly wrought so that each section slid
into the next, until the eye was no longer than a dirk. Victarion claimed that treasure for himself. The
cog he renamed Shrike. Her crew would be kept for ransom, the captain decreed. They were neither
slaves nor slavers, but free Myrmen and seasoned sailors. Such men were worth good coin. Sailing out
of Myr, the Dove brought them no fresh news of Meereen or Daenerys, only stale reports of Dothraki
horsemen along the Rhoyne, the Golden Company upon the march, and others things Victarion already
knew.
What do you see? the captain asked his black priest that night, as Moqorro stood before his
nightfire. What awaits us on the morrow? More rain? It smelled like rain to him.
Grey skies and strong winds, Moqorro said. No rain. Behind come the tigers. Ahead awaits
your dragon.
Your dragon. Victarion liked the sound of that. Tell me something that I do not know, priest.
The captain commands, and I obey, said Moqorro. The crew had taken to calling him the Black
Flame, a name fastened on him by Steffar Stammerer, who could not say Moqorro. By any name, the
priest had powers. The coastline here runs west to east, he told Victarion. Where it turns north, you
will come on two more hares. Swift ones, with many legs.
And so it came to pass. This time the prey proved to be a pair of galleys, long and sleek and fast.
Ralf the Limper was the first to sight them, but they soon outdistanced Woe and Forlorn Hope, so
Victarion sent Iron Wing, Sparrowhawk, and Krakens Kiss to run them down. He had no swifter ships
than those three. The pursuit lasted the best part of the day, but in the end both galleys were boarded
and taken, after brief but brutal fights. They had been running empty, Victarion learned, making for New
Ghis to load supplies and weapons for the Ghiscari legions encamped before Meereen  and to bring
fresh legionaries to the war, to replace all the men whod died. Men slain in battle? asked Victarion.
The crews of the galleys denied it; the deaths were from a bloody flux. The pale mare, they called it. And
like the captain of the Ghiscari Dawn, the captains of the galleys repeated the lie that Daenerys
Targaryen was dead.
Give her a kiss for me in whatever hell you find her, Victarion said. He called for his axe and
took their heads off there and then. Afterward he put their crews to death as well, saving only the slaves
chained to the oars. He broke their chains himself and told them they were now free men and would
have the privilege of rowing for the Iron Fleet, an honor that every boy in the Iron Islands dreamed of
growing up. The dragon queen frees slaves and so do I, he proclaimed.

The galleys he renamed Ghost and Shade. For I mean them to return and haunt these
Yunkishmen, he told the dusky woman that night after he had taken his pleasure of her. They were
close now, and growing closer every day. We will fall upon them like a thunderbolt, he said, as he
squeezed the womans breast. He wondered if this was how his brother Aeron felt when the Drowned
God spoke to him. He could almost hear the gods voice welling up from the depths of the sea. You shall
serve me well, my captain, the waves seemed to say. It was for this I made you.
But he would feed the red god too, Moqorros fire god. The arm the priest had healed was
hideous to look upon, pork crackling from elbow to fingertips. Sometimes when Victarion closed his
hand the skin would split and smoke, yet the arm was stronger than it had ever been. Two gods are
with me now, he told the dusky woman. No foe can stand before two gods. Then he rolled her on her
back and took her once again.
When the cliffs of Yaros appeared off their larboard bows, he found his three lost ships waiting
for him, just as Moqorro had promised. Victarion gave the priest a golden torque as a reward.
Now he had a choice to make: should he risk the straits, or take the Iron Fleet around the
island? The memory of Fair Isle still rankled in the iron captains memory. Stannis Baratheon had
descended on the Iron Fleet from both north and south whilst they were trapped in the channel
between the island and the mainland, dealing Victarion his most crushing defeat. But sailing around
Yaros would cost him precious days. With Yunkai so near, shipping in the straits was like to be heavy, but
he did not expect to encounter Yunkish warships until they were closer to Meereen.
What would the Crows Eye do? He brooded on that for a time, then signaled to his captains.
We sail the straits.
Three more prizes were taken before Yaros dwindled off their sterns. A fat galleas fell to the
Vole and Grief, and a trading galley to Manfryd Merlyn of Kite. Their holds were packed with trade
goods, wines and silks and spices, rare woods and rarer scents, but the ships themselves were the true
prize. Later that same day, a fishing ketch was taken by Seven Skulls and Thralls Bane. She was a small,
slow, dingy thing, hardly worth the effort of boarding. Victarion was displeased to hear that it had taken
two of his own ships to bring the fishermen to heel. Yet it was from their lips that he heard of the black
dragons return. The silver queen is gone, the ketchs master told him. She flew away upon her
dragon, beyond the Dothraki sea.
Where is this Dothraki sea? he demanded. I will sail the Iron Fleet across it and find the
queen wherever she may be.
The fisherman laughed aloud. That would be a sight worth seeing. The Dothraki sea is made of
grass, fool.
He should not have said that. Victarion took him around the throat with his burned hand and
lifted him bodily into the air. Slamming him back against the mast, he squeezed till the Yunkishmans
face turned as black as the fingers digging into his flesh. The man kicked and writhed for a while, trying

fruitlessly to pry loose the captains grip. No man calls Victarion Greyjoy a fool and lives to boast of it.
When he opened his hand, the mans limp body flopped to the deck. Longwater Pyke and Tom
Tidewood chucked it over the rail, another offering to the Drowned God.
Your Drowned God is a demon, the black priest Moqorro said afterward. He is no more than
a thrall of the Other, the dark god whose name must not be spoken.
Take care, priest, Victarion warned him. There are godly men aboard this ship who would
tear out your tongue for speaking such blasphemies. Your red god will have his due, I swear it. My word
is iron. Ask any of my men.
The black priest bowed his head. There is no need. The Lord of Light has shown me your worth,
lord Captain. Every night in my fires I glimpse the glory that awaits you.
Those words pleased Victarion Greyjoy mightily, as he told the dusky woman that night. My
brother Balon was a great man, he said, but I shall do what he could not. The Iron Islands shall be free
again, and the Old Way will return. Even Dagon could not do that. Almost a hundred years had passed
since Dagon Greyjoy sat the Seastone Chair, but the ironborn still told tales of his raids and battles. In
Dagons day a weak king sat the Iron Throne, his rheumy eyes fixed across the narrow sea where
bastards and exiles plotted rebellion. So forth from Pyke Lord Dagon sailed, to make the Sunset Sea his
own. He bearded the lion in his den and tied the direwolfs tail in knots, but even Dagon could not
defeat the dragons. But I shall make the dragon queen mine own. She will share my bed and bear me
many mighty sons.
That night the ships of the Iron Fleet numbered sixty.
Strange sails grew more common north of Yaros. They were very near to Yunkai, and the coast
between the Yellow City and Meereen would be teeming with merchantmen and supply ships coming
and going, so Victarion took the Iron Fleet out into the deeper waters, beyond the sight of land. Even
there they would encounter other vessels. Let none escape to give warning to our foes, the iron
captain commanded. None did.
The sea was green and the sky was grey the morning Grief and Warrior Wench and Victarions
own Iron Victory captured the slaver galley from Yunkai in the waters due north of the Yellow City. In her
holds were twenty perfumed boys and four score girls destined for the pleasure houses of Lys. Her crew
never thought to find peril so close to their home waters, and the ironborn had little trouble taking her.
She was named the Willing Maiden.
Victarion put the slavers to the sword, then sent his men below to un-chain the rowers. You
row for me now. Row hard, and you shall prosper. The girls he divided amongst his captains. The
Lyseni would have made whores of you, he told them, but we have saved you. Now you need only
serve one man instead of many. Those who please their captains may be taken as salt wives, an
honorable station. The perfumed boys he wrapped in chains and threw into the sea. They were
unnatural creatures, and the ship smelled better once cleansed of their presence.

For himself, Victarion claimed the seven choicest girls. One had red-gold hair and freckles on her
teats. One shaved herself all over. One was brown-haired and brown-eyed, shy as a mouse. One had the
biggest breasts he had ever seen. The fifth was a little thing, with straight black hair and golden skin. Her
eyes were the color of amber. The sixth was white as milk, with golden rings through her nipples and her
nether lips, the seventh black as a squids ink. The slavers of Yunkai had trained them in the way of the
seven sighs, but that was not why Victarion wanted them. His dusky woman was enough to satisfy his
appetites until he could reach Meereen and claim his queen. No man had need of candles when the sun
awaited him.
The galley he renamed the Slavers Scream. With her, the ships of the Iron Fleet numbered
one-and-sixty. Every ship we capture makes us stronger, Victarion told his ironborn, but from here it
will grow harder. On the morrow or the day after, we are like to meet with warships. We are entering
the home waters of Meereen, where the fleets of our foes await us. We will meet with ships from all
three Slaver Cities, ships from Tolos and Elyria and New Ghis, even ships from Qarth. He took care not
to mention the green galleys of Old Volantis that surely must be sailing up through the Gulf of Grief even
as he spoke. These slavers are feeble things. You have seen how they run before us, heard how they
squeal when we put them to the sword. Every man of you is worth twenty of them, for only we are
made of iron. Remember this when first we next spy some slavers sails. Give no quarter and expect
none. What need have we of quarter? We are the ironborn, and two gods look over us. We will seize
their ships, smash their hopes, and turn their bay to blood.
A great cry went up at his words. The captain answered with a nod, grim-faced, then called for
the seven girls he had claimed to be brought on deck, the loveliest of all those found aboard the Willing
Maiden. He kissed them each upon the cheeks and told them of the honor that awaited them, though
they did not understand his words. Then he had them put aboard the fishing ketch that they had
captured, cut her loose, and had her set afire.
With this gift of innocence and beauty, we honor both the gods, he proclaimed, as the
warships of the Iron Fleet rowed past the burning ketch. Let these girls be reborn in light, undefiled by
mortal lust, or let them descend to the Drowned Gods watery halls, to feast and dance and laugh until
the seas dry up.
Near the end, before the smoking ketch was swallowed by the sea, the cries of the seven
sweetlings changed to joyous song, it seemed to Victarion Greyjoy. A great wind came up then, a wind
that filled their sails and swept them north and east and north again, toward Meereen and its pyramids
of many-colored bricks. On wings of song I fly to you, Daenerys, the iron captain thought.
That night, for the first time, he brought forth the dragon horn that the Crows Eye had found
amongst the smoking wastes of great Valyria. A twisted thing it was, six feet long from end to end,
gleaming black and banded with red gold and dark Valyrian steel. Eurons hellhorn. Victarion ran his
hand along it. The horn was as warm and smooth as the dusky womans thighs, and so shiny that he
could see a twisted likeness of his own features in its depths. Strange sorcerous writings had been cut
into the bands that girded it. Valyrian glyphs, Moqorro called them.

That much Victarion had known. What do they say?
Much and more. The black priest pointed to one golden band. Here the horn is named. I am
Dragonbinder, it says. Have you ever heard it sound?
Once. One of his brothers mongrels had sounded the hellhorn at the kingsmoot on Old Wyk.
A monster of a man he had been, huge and shaven-headed, with rings of gold and jet and jade around
arms thick with muscle, and a great hawk tattooed across his chest. The sound it made  it burned,
somehow. As if my bones were on fire, searing my flesh from within. Those writings glowed red-hot,
then white-hot and painful to look upon. It seemed as if the sound would never end. It was like some
long scream. A thousand screams, all melted into one.
And the man who blew the horn, what of him?
He died. There were blisters on his lips, after. His bird was bleeding too. The captain thumped
his chest. The hawk, just here. Every feather dripping blood. I heard the man was all burned up inside,
but that might just have been some tale.
A true tale. Moqorro turned the hellhorn, examining the queer letters that crawled across a
second of the golden bands. Here it says, No mortal man shall sound me and live. 
Bitterly Victarion brooded on the treachery of brothers. Eurons gifts are always poisoned. The
Crows Eye swore this horn would bind dragons to my will. But how will that serve me if the price is
death?
Your brother did not sound the horn himself. Nor must you. Moqorro pointed to the band of
steel. Here. Blood for fire, fire for blood. Who blows the hellhorn matters not. The dragons will come
to the horns master. You must claim the horn. With blood.
THE UGLY LITTLE GIRL
Eleven servants of the Many-Faced God gathered that night beneath the temple, more than she
had ever seen together at one time. Only the lordling and the fat fellow arrived by the front door; the
rest came by secret ways, through tunnels and hidden passages. They wore their robes of black and
white, but as they took their seats each man pulled his cowl down to show the face he had chosen to
wear that day. Their tall chairs were carved of ebony and weirwood, like the doors of the temple above.
The ebon chairs had weirwood faces on their backs, the weirwood chairs faces of carved ebony.
One of the other acolytes stood across the room with a flagon of dark red wine. She had the
water. Whenever one of the servants wished to drink, he would raise his eyes or crook a finger, and one
or both of them would come and fill his cup. But mostly they stood, waiting on looks that never came. I

am carved of stone, she reminded herself. I am a statue, like the Sealords that stand along the Canal of
the Heroes. The water was heavy, but her arms were strong.
The priests used the language of Braavos, though once for several minutes three spoke heatedly
in High Valyrian. The girl understood the words, mostly, but they spoke in soft voices, and she could not
always hear. I know this man, she did hear a priest with the face of a plague victim say. I know this
man, the fat fellow echoed, as she was pouring for him. But the handsome man said, I will give this
man the gift, I know him not. Later the squinter said the same thing, of someone else.
After three hours of wine and words, the priests took their leave  all but the kindly man, the
waif, and the one whose face bore the marks of plague. His cheeks were covered with weeping sores,
and his hair had fallen out. Blood dripped from one nostril and crusted at the corners of both eyes. Our
brother would have words with you, child, the kindly man told her. Sit, if you wish. She seated herself
in a weirwood chair with a face of ebony. Bloody sores held no terror for her. She had been too long in
the House of Black and White to be afraid of a false face.
Who are you? plague face asked when they were alone. No one.
Not so. You are Arya of House Stark, who bites her lip and cannot tell a lie.
I was. Im not now.
Why are you here, liar?
To serve. To learn. To change my face.
First change your heart. The gift of the Many-Faced God is not a childs plaything. You would kill
for your own purposes, for your own pleasures. Do you deny it?
She bit her lip. I
He slapped her.
The blow left her cheek stinging, but she knew that she had earned it. Thank you. Enough
slaps, and she might stop chewing on her lip. Arya did that, not the night wolf. I do deny it.
You lie. I can see the truth in your eyes. You have the eyes of a wolf and a taste for blood.
Ser Gregor, she could not help but think. Dunsen, Raff the Sweetling. Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, Queen
Cersei. If she spoke, she would need to lie, and he would know. She kept silent.
You were a cat, they tell me. Prowling through the alleys smelling of fish, selling cockles and
mussels for coin. A small life, well suited for a small creature such as you. Ask, and it can be restored to
you. Push your barrow, cry your cockles, be content. Your heart is too soft to be one of us.
He means to send me away. I have no heart. I only have a hole. Ive killed lots of people. I could
kill you if I wanted.

Would that taste sweet to you?
She did not know the right answer. Maybe.
Then you do not belong here. Death holds no sweetness in this house. We are not warriors, nor
soldiers, nor swaggering bravos puffed up with pride. We do not kill to serve some lord, to fatten our
purses, to stroke our vanity. We never give the gift to please ourselves. Nor do we choose the ones we
kill. We are but servants of the God of Many Faces.
Valar dohaeris. All men must serve. You know the words, but you are too proud to serve. A
servant must be humble and obedient.
I obey. I can be humbler than anyone.
That made him chuckle. You will be the very goddess of humility, I am sure. But can you pay the
price?
What price?
The price is you. The price is all you have and all you ever hope to have. We took your eyes and
gave them back. Next we will take your ears, and you will walk in silence. You will give us your legs and
crawl. You will be no ones daughter, no ones wife, no ones mother. Your name will be a lie, and the
very face you wear will not be your own.
She almost bit her lip again, but this time she caught herself and stopped. My face is a dark pool,
hiding everything, showing nothing. She thought of all the names that she had worn: Arry, Weasel,
Squab, Cat of the Canals. She thought of that stupid girl from Winterfell called Arya Horseface. Names
did not matter. I can pay the price. Give me a face.
Faces must be earned.
Tell me how.
Give a certain man a certain gift. Can you do that?
What man?
No one that you know.
I dont know a lot of people.
He is one of them. A stranger. No one you love, no one you hate, no one you have ever known.
Will you kill him?
Yes.
Then on the morrow, you shall be Cat of the Canals again. Wear that face, watch, obey. And we
will see if you are truly worthy to serve Him of Many Faces.

So the next day she returned to Brusco and his daughters in the house on the canal. Bruscos
eyes widened when he saw her, and Brea gave a little gasp. Valar morghulis, Cat said, by way of
greeting. Valar dohaeris, Brusco replied.
After that it was as if she had never been away.
She got her first look at the man she must kill later that morning as she wheeled her barrow
through the cobbled streets that fronted on the Purple Harbor. He was an old man, well past fifty. He
has lived too long, she tried to tell herself. Why should he have so many years when my father had so
few? But Cat of the Canals had no father, so she kept that thought to herself.
Cockles and mussels and clams, Cat cried as he went past, oysters and prawns and fat green
mussels. She even smiled at him. Sometimes a smile was all you needed to make them stop and buy.
The old man did not smile back. He scowled at her and went on past, sloshing through a puddle. The
splash wet her feet.
He has no courtesy, she thought, watching him go. His face is hard and mean. The old mans
nose was pinched and sharp, his lips thin, his eyes small and close-set. His hair had gone to grey, but the
little pointed beard at the end of his chin was still black. Cat thought it must be dyed and wondered why
he had not dyed his hair as well. One of his shoulders was higher than the other, giving him a crooked
cast.
He is an evil man, she announced that evening when she returned to the House of Black and
White. His lips are cruel, his eyes are mean, and he has a villains beard.
The kindly man chuckled. He is a man like any other, with light in him and darkness. It is not for
you to judge him.
That gave her pause. Have the gods judged him?
Some gods, mayhaps. What are gods for if not to sit in judgment over men? The Many-Faced
God does not weigh mens souls, however. He gives his gift to the best of men as he gives it to the
worst. Elsewise the good would live forever.
The old mans hands were the worst thing about him, Cat decided the next day, as she watched
him from behind her barrow. His fingers were long and bony, always moving, scratching at his beard,
tugging at an ear, drumming on a table, twitching, twitching, twitching. He has hands like two white
spiders. The more she watched his hands, the more she came to hate them.
He moves his hands too much, she told them at the temple. He must be full of fear. The gift
will bring him peace.
The gift brings all men peace.
When I kill him he will look in my eyes and thank me.

If he does, you will have failed. It would be best if he takes no note of you at all.
The old man was some sort of merchant, Cat concluded after watching him for a few days. His
trade had to do with the sea, though she never saw him set foot upon a ship. He spent his days sitting in
a soup shop near the Purple Harbor, a cup of onion broth cooling at his elbow as he shuffled papers and
sealing wax and spoke in sharp tones to a parade of captains, shipowners, and other merchants, none of
whom seemed to like him very much.
Yet they brought him money: leather purses plump with gold and silver and the square iron
coins of Braavos. The old man would count it out carefully, sorting the coins and stacking them up
neatly, like with like. He never looked at the coins. Instead he bit them, always on the left side of his
mouth, where he still had all his teeth. From time to time hed spin one on the table and listen to the
sound it made when it came clattering to a stop.
And when all the coins had been counted and tasted, the old man would scrawl upon a
parchment, stamp it with his seal, and give it to the captain. Else hed shake his head and shove the
coins back across the table. Whenever he did that, the other man would get red-faced and angry, or pale
and scared-looking.
Cat did not understand. They pay him gold and silver, but he only gives them writing. Are they
stupid?
A few, mayhaps. Most are simply cautious. Some think to cozen him. He is not a man easily
cozened, however.
But what is he selling them?
He is writing each a binder. If their ships are lost in a storm or taken by pirates, he promises to
pay them for the value of the vessel and all its contents.
Is it some kind of wager?
Of a sort. A wager every captain hopes to lose.
Yes, but if they win 
 they lose their ships, oftimes their very lives. The seas are dangerous, and never more so
than in autumn. No doubt many a captain sinking in a storm has taken some small solace in his binder
back in Braavos, knowing that his widow and children will not want. A sad smile touched his lips. It is
one thing to write such a binder, though, and another to make good on it.
Cat understood. One of them must hate him. One of them came to the House of Black and White
and prayed for the god to take him. She wondered who it had been, but the kindly man would not tell
her. It is not for you to pry into such matters, he said. Who are you?
No one.

No one asks no questions. He took her hands. If you cannot do this thing, you need only say
so. There is no shame in that. Some are made to serve the Many-Faced God and some are not. Say the
word, and I shall lift this task from you.
I will do it. I said I would. I will.
How, though? That was harder.
He had guards. Two of them, a tall thin man and a short thick one. They went with him
everywhere, from when he left his house in the morning till he returned at night. They made certain no
one got close to the old man without his leave. Once a drunk almost staggered into him as he was
coming home from the soup shop, but the tall one stepped between them and gave the man a sharp
shove that knocked him to the ground. At the soup shop, the short one always tasted the onion broth
first. The old man waited until the broth had cooled before he took a sip, long enough to be sure his
guardsman had suffered no ill effects.
Hes afraid, she realized, or else he knows that someone wants to kill him.
He does not know, said the kindly man, but he suspects.
The guards go with him even when he slips out to make water, she said, but he doesnt go
when they do. The tall one is the quicker. Ill wait till he is making water, walk into the soup shop, and
stab the old man through the eye.
And the other guard?
Hes slow and stupid. I can kill him too.
Are you some butcher of the battlefield, hacking down every man who stands in your way?
No.
I would hope not. You are a servant of the Many-Faced God, and we who serve Him of Many
Faces give his gift only to those who have been marked and chosen.
She understood. Kill him. Kill only him.
It took her three more days of watching before she found the way, and another day of practicing
with her finger knife. Red Roggo had taught her how to use it, but she had not slit a purse since back
before they took away her eyes. She wanted to make certain that she still knew how. Smooth and quick,
thats the way, no fumbling, she told herself, and she slipped the little blade out of her sleeve, again and
again and again. When she was satisfied that she still remembered how to do it, she sharpened the steel
on a whetstone until its edge glimmered silver-blue in the candlelight. The other part was trickier, but
the waif was there to help her. I will give the man the gift on the morrow, she announced as she was
breaking her fast.

Him of Many Faces will be pleased. The kindly man rose. Cat of the Canals is known to many.
If she is seen to have done this deed, it might bring down trouble on Brusco and his daughters. It is time
you had another face.
The girl did not smile, but inside she was pleased. She had lost Cat once, and mourned her. She
did not want to lose her again. What will I look like?
Ugly. Women will look away when they see you. Children will stare and point. Strong men will
pity you, and some may shed a tear. No one who sees you will soon forget you. Come.
The kindly man took the iron lantern off its hook and led her past the still black pool and the
rows of dark and silent gods, to the steps at the rear of the temple. The waif fell in behind them as they
were making their descent. No one spoke. The soft scuff of slippered feet on the steps was the only
sound. Eighteen steps brought them to the vaults, where five arched passageways spread out like the
fingers of a mans hand. Down here the steps grew narrower and steeper, but the girl had run up and
down them a thousand times and they held no terrors for her. Twenty-two more steps and they were at
the subcellar. The tunnels here were cramped and crooked, black wormholes twisting through the heart
of the great rock. One passage was closed off by a heavy iron door. The priest hung the lantern from a
hook, slipped a hand inside his robe, and produced an ornate key.
Gooseprickles rose along her arms. The sanctum. They were going lower still, down to the third
level, to the secret chambers where only the priests were permitted.
The key clicked three times, very softly, as the kindly man turned it in a lock. The door swung
open on oiled iron hinges, making not a sound. Beyond were still more steps, hewn out of solid rock. The
priest took down the lantern once again and led the way. The girl followed the light, counting the steps
as she went down. Four five six seven. She found herself wishing that she had brought her stick. Ten
eleven twelve. She knew how many steps there were between the temple and the cellar, between the
cellar and the subcellar, she had even counted the steps on the cramped winding stair that spiraled up
into the garret and the rungs on the steep wooden ladder that ascended to the rooftop door and the
windy perch outside.
This stair was unknown to her, however, and that made it perilous. One-and-twenty
two-and-twenty three-and-twenty. With every step the air seemed to grow a little colder. When her
count reached thirty she knew that they were under even the canals. Three-and-thirty four-and-thirty.
How deep were they going to go?
She had reached fifty-four when the steps finally ended at another iron door. This one was
unlocked. The kindly man pushed it open and stepped through. She followed, with the waif on her heels.
Their footsteps echoed through the darkness. The kindly man lifted his lantern and flicked its shutters
wide open. Light washed over the walls around them.
A thousand faces were gazing down on her.

They hung upon the walls, before her and behind her, high and low, everywhere she looked,
everywhere she turned. She saw old faces and young faces, pale faces and dark faces, smooth faces and
wrinkled faces, freckled faces and scarred faces, handsome faces and homely faces, men and women,
boys and girls, even babes, smiling faces, frowning faces, faces full of greed and rage and lust, bald faces
and faces bristling with hair. Masks, she told herself, its only masks, but even as she thought the
thought, she knew it wasnt so. They were skins.
Do they frighten you, child? asked the kindly man. It is not too late for you to leave us. Is this
truly what you want?
Arya bit her lip. She did not know what she wanted. If I leave, where will I go? She had washed
and stripped a hundred corpses, dead things did not frighten her. They carry them down here and slice
their faces off, so what? She was the night wolf, no scraps of skin could frighten her. Leather hoods,
thats all they are, they cannot hurt me. Do it, she blurted out.
He led her across the chamber, past a row of tunnels leading off into side passages. The light of
his lantern illuminated each in turn. One tunnel was walled with human bones, its roof supported by
columns of skulls. Another opened on winding steps that descended farther still. How many cellars are
there? she wondered. Do they just go down forever?
Sit, the priest commanded. She sat. Now close your eyes, child. She closed her eyes. This
will hurt, he warned her, but pain is the price of power. Do not move.
Still as stone, she thought. She sat unmoving. The cut was quick, the blade sharp. By rights the
metal should have been cold against her flesh, but it felt warm instead. She could feel the blood washing
down her face, a rippling red curtain falling across her brow and cheeks and chin, and she understood
why the priest had made her close her eyes. When it reached her lips the taste was salt and copper. She
licked at it and shivered.
Bring me the face, said the kindly man. The waif made no answer, but she could hear her
slippers whispering over the stone floor. To the girl he said, Drink this, and pressed a cup into her
hand. She drank it down at once. It was very tart, like biting into a lemon. A thousand years ago, she had
known a girl who loved lemon cakes. No, that was not me, that was only Arya.
Mummers change their faces with artifice, the kindly man was saying, and sorcerers use
glamors, weaving light and shadow and desire to make illusions that trick the eye. These arts you shall
learn, but what we do here goes deeper. Wise men can see through artifice, and glamors dissolve before
sharp eyes, but the face you are about to don will be as true and solid as that face you were born with.
Keep your eyes closed. She felt his fingers brushing back her hair. Stay still. This will feel queer. You
may be dizzy, but you must not move.
Then came a tug and a soft rustling as the new face was pulled down over the old. The leather
scraped across her brow, dry and stiff, but as her blood soaked into it, it softened and turned supple.
Her cheeks grew warm, flushed. She could feel her heart fluttering beneath her breast, and for one long

moment she could not catch her breath. Hands closed around her throat, hard as stone, choking her.
Her own hands shot up to claw at the arms of her attacker, but there was no one there. A terrible sense
of fear filled her, and she heard a noise, a hideous crunching noise, accompanied by blinding pain. A face
floated in front of her, fat, bearded, brutal, his mouth twisted with rage. She heard the priest say,
Breathe, child. Breathe out the fear. Shake off the shadows. He is dead. She is dead. Her pain is gone.
Breathe.
The girl took a deep shuddering breath, and realized it was true. No one was choking her, no
one was hitting her. Even so, her hand was shaking as she raised it to her face. Flakes of dried blood
crumbled at the touch of her fingertips, black in the lantern light. She felt her cheeks, touched her eyes,
traced the line of her jaw. My face is still the same.
Is it? Are you certain?
Was she certain? She had not felt any change, but maybe it was not something you could feel.
She swept a hand down across her face from top to bottom, as she had once seen Jaqen Hghar do, back
at Harrenhal. When he did it, his whole face had rippled and changed. When she did it, nothing
happened. It feels the same.
To you, said the priest. It does not look the same.
To other eyes, your nose and jaw are broken, said the waif. One side of your face is caved in
where your cheekbone shattered, and half your teeth are missing.
She probed around inside her mouth with her tongue, but found no holes or broken teeth.
Sorcery, she thought. I have a new face. An ugly, broken face.
You may have bad dreams for a time, warned the kindly man. Her father beat her so often
and so brutally that she was never truly free of pain or fear until she came to us.
Did you kill him?
She asked the gift for herself, not for her father.
You should have killed him.
He must have read her thoughts. Death came for him in the end, as it comes for all men. As it
must come for a certain man upon the morrow. He lifted up the lamp. We are done here.
For now. As they made their way back to the steps, the empty eyeholes of the skins upon the
walls seemed to follow her. For a moment she could almost see their lips moving, whispering dark sweet
secrets to one another in words too faint to hear.
Sleep did not come easily that night. Tangled in her blankets, she twisted this way and that in
the cold dark room, but whichever way she turned, she saw the faces. They have no eyes, but they can
see me. She saw her fathers face upon the wall. Beside him hung her lady mother, and below them her

three brothers all in a row. No. That was some other girl. I am no one, and my only brothers wear robes
of black and white. Yet there was the black singer, there the stableboy shed killed with Needle, there
the pimply squire from the crossroads inn, and over there the guard whose throat shed slashed to get
them out of Harrenhal. The Tickler hung on the wall as well, the black holes that were his eyes
swimming with malice. The sight of him brought back the feel of the dagger in her hand as she had
plunged it into his back, again and again and again.
When at last day came to Braavos, it came grey and dark and overcast. The girl had hoped for
fog, but the gods ignored her prayers as gods so often did. The air was clear and cold, and the wind had
a nasty bite to it. A good day for a death, she thought. Unbidden, her prayer came to her lips. Ser
Gregor, Dunsen, Raff the Sweetling. Ser Ilyn, Ser Meryn, Queen Cersei. She mouthed the names silently.
In the House of Black and White, you never knew who might be listening.
The vaults were full of old clothing, garments claimed from those who came to the House of
Black and White to drink peace from the temple pool. Everything from beggars rags to rich silks and
velvets could be found there. An ugly girl should dress in ugly clothing, she decided, so she chose a
stained brown cloak fraying at the hem, a musty green tunic smelling of fish, and a pair of heavy boots.
Last of all she palmed her finger knife.
There was no haste, so she decided to take the long way round to the Purple Harbor. Across the
bridge she went, to the Isle of the Gods. Cat of the Canals had sold cockles and mussels amongst the
temples here, whenever Bruscos daughter Talea had her moon blood flowing and took to her bed. She
half-expected to see Talea selling there today, perhaps outside the Warren where all the forgotten
godlings had their forlorn little shrines, but that was silly. The day was too cold, and Talea never liked to
wake this early. The statue outside the shrine of the Weeping Lady of Lys was crying silver tears as the
ugly girl walked by. In the Gardens of Gelenei stood a gilded tree a hundred feet high with leaves of
hammered silver. Torch-light glimmered behind windows of leaded glass in the Lord of Harmonys
wooden hall, showing half a hundred kinds of butterflies in all their bright colors.
One time, the girl remembered, the Sailors Wife had walked her rounds with her and told her
tales of the citys stranger gods. That is the house of the Great Shepherd. Three-headed Trios has that
tower with three turrets. The first head devours the dying, and the reborn emerge from the third. I dont
know what the middle heads supposed to do. Those are the Stones of the Silent God, and there the
entrance to the Pattern-makers Maze. Only those who learn to walk it properly will ever find their way
to wisdom, the priests of the Pattern say. Beyond it, by the canal, thats the temple of Aquan the Red
Bull. Every thirteenth day, his priests slit the throat of a pure white calf, and offer bowls of blood to
beggars.
Today was not the thirteenth day, it seemed; the Red Bulls steps were empty. The brother gods
Semosh and Selloso dreamed in twin temples on opposite sides of the Black Canal, linked by a carved
stone bridge. The girl crossed there and made her way down to the docks, then through the Ragmans
Harbor and past the half-sunken spires and domes of the Drowned Town.

A group of Lysene sailors were staggering from the Happy Port as she went by, but the girl did
not see any of the whores. The Ship was closed up and forlorn, its troupe of mummers no doubt still
abed. But farther on, on the wharf beside an Ibbenese whaler, she spied Cats old friend Tagganaro
tossing a ball back and forth with Casso, King of Seals, whilst his latest cutpurse worked the crowd of
onlookers. When she stopped to watch and listen for a moment, Tagganaro glanced at her without
recognition, but Casso barked and clapped his flippers. He knows me, the girl thought, or else he smells
the fish. She hurried on her way.
By the time she reached the Purple Harbor, the old man was ensconced inside the soup shop at
his usual table, counting a purse of coins as he haggled with a ships captain. The tall thin guard was
hovering over him. The short thick one was seated near the door, where he would have a good view of
anyone who entered. That made no matter. She did not intend to enter. Instead she perched atop a
wooden piling twenty yards away as the blustery wind tugged at her cloak with ghostly fingers.
Even on a cold grey day like this, the harbor was a busy place. She saw sailors on the prowl for
whores, and whores on the prowl for sailors. A pair of bravos passed in rumpled finery, leaning on each
other as they staggered drunkenly past the docks, their blades rattling at their sides. A red priest swept
past, his scarlet and crimson robes snapping in the wind.
It was almost noon before she saw the man she wanted, a prosperous shipowner she had seen
doing business with the old man three times before. Big and bald and burly, he wore a heavy cloak of
plush brown velvet trimmed with fur and a brown leather belt ornamented with silver moons and stars.
Some mishap had left one leg stiff. He walked slowly, leaning on a cane.
He would do as well as any and better than most, the ugly girl decided. She hopped off the piling
and fell in after him. A dozen strides put her right behind him, her finger knife poised. His purse was on
his right side, at his belt, but his cloak was in her way. Her blade flashed out, smooth and quick, one
deep slash through the velvet and he never felt a thing. Red Roggo would have smiled to see it. She
slipped her hand through the gap, slit the purse open with the finger knife, filled her fist with gold 
The big man turned. What
The movement tangled her arm in the folds of his cloak as she was pulling out her hand. Coins
rained around their feet. Thief! The big man raised his stick to strike at her. She kicked his bad leg out
from under him, danced away, and bolted as he fell, darting past a mother with a child. More coins fell
from between her fingers to bounce along the ground. Shouts of thief, thief  rang out behind her. A
potbellied innkeep passing by made a clumsy grab for her arm, but she spun around him, flashed past a
laughing whore, raced headlong for the nearest alley.
Cat of the Canals had known these alleys, and the ugly girl remembered. She darted left, vaulted
a low wall, leapt across a small canal, and slipped through an unlocked door into some dusty storeroom.
All sounds of pursuit had faded by then, but it was best to be sure. She hunkered down behind some
crates and waited, arms wrapped around her knees. She waited for the best part of an hour, then
decided it was safe to go, climbed straight up the side of the building, and made her way across the

rooftops almost as far as the Canal of Heroes. By now the shipowner would have gathered up coins and
cane and limped on to the soup shop. He might be drinking a bowl of hot broth and complaining to the
old man about the ugly girl who had tried to rob his purse.
The kindly man was waiting for her at the House of Black and White, seated on the edge of the
temple pool. The ugly girl sat next to him and put a coin on the lip of the pool between them. It was
gold, with a dragon on one face and a king on the other.
The golden dragon of Westeros, said the kindly man. And how did you come by this? We are
no thieves.
It wasnt stealing. I took one of his, but I left him one of ours.
The kindly man understood. And with that coin and the others in his purse, he paid a certain
man. Soon after that mans heart gave out. Is that the way of it? Very sad. The priest picked up the coin
and tossed it into the pool. You have much and more to learn, but it may be you are not hopeless.
That night they gave her back the face of Arya Stark.
They brought a robe for her as well, the soft thick robe of an acolyte, black upon one side and
white upon the other. Wear this when you are here, the priest said, but know that you shall have
little need of it for the present. On the morrow you will go to Izembaro to begin your first
apprenticeship. Take what clothes you will from the vaults below. The city watch is looking for a certain
ugly girl, known to frequent the Purple Harbor, so best you have a new face as well. He cupped her
chin, turned her head this way and that, nodded. A pretty one this time, I think. As pretty as your own.
Who are you, child?
No one, she replied.
CERSEI
On the last night of her imprisonment, the queen could not sleep. Each time she closed her
eyes, her head filled with forebodings and fantasies of the morrow. I will have guards, she told herself.
They will keep the crowds away. No one will be allowed to touch me. The High Sparrow had promised
her that much.
Even so, she was afraid. On the day Myrcella sailed for Dorne, the day of the bread riots, gold
cloaks had been posted all along the route of the procession, but the mob had broken through their
lines to tear the old fat High Septon into pieces and rape Lollys Stokeworth half a hundred times. And if
that pale soft stupid creature could incite the animals when fully clothed, how much more lust would a
queen inspire?

Cersei paced her cell, restless as the caged lions that had lived in the bowels of Casterly Rock
when she was a girl, a legacy of her grandfathers time. She and Jaime used to dare each other to climb
into their cage, and once she worked up enough courage to slip her hand between two bars and touch
one of the great tawny beasts. She was always bolder than her brother. The lion had turned his head to
stare at her with huge golden eyes. Then he licked her fingers. His tongue was as rough as a rasp, but
even so she would not pull her hand back, not until Jaime took her by the shoulders and yanked her
away from the cage.
Your turn, she told him afterward. Pull his mane, I dare you. He never did. I should have had
the sword, not him.
Barefoot and shivering she paced, a thin blanket draped about her shoulders. She was anxious
for the day to come. By evening it would all be done. A little walk and Ill be home, Ill be back with
Tommen, in my own chambers inside Maegors Holdfast. Her uncle said it was the only way to save
herself. Was it, though? She could not trust her uncle, no more than she trusted this High Septon. I could
still refuse. I could still insist upon my innocence and hazard all upon a trial.
But she dare not let the Faith sit in judgment on her, as that Margaery Tyrell meant to do. That
might serve the little rose well enough, but Cersei had few friends amongst the septas and sparrows
around this new High Septon. Her only hope was trial by battle, and for that she must needs have a
champion.
If Jaime had not lost his hand 
That road led nowhere, though. Jaimes sword hand was gone, and so was he, vanished with the
woman Brienne somewhere in the riverlands. The queen had to find another defender or todays ordeal
would be the least of her travails. Her enemies were accusing her of treason. She had to reach Tommen,
no matter the costs. He loves me. He will not refuse his own mother. Joff was stubborn and
unpredictable, but Tommen is a good little boy, a good little king. He will do as he is told. If she stayed
here, she was doomed, and the only way she would return to the Red Keep was by walking. The High
Sparrow had been adamant, and Ser Kevan refused to lift a finger against him.
No harm will come to me today, Cersei said when the days first light brushed her window.
Only my pride will suffer. The words rang hollow in her ears. Jaime may yet come. She pictured him
riding through the morning mists, his golden armor bright in the light of the rising sun. Jaime, if you ever
loved me 
When her gaolers came for her, Septa Unella, Septa Moelle, and Septa Scolera led the
procession. With them were four novices and two of the silent sisters. The sight of the silent sisters in
their grey robes filled the queen with sudden terrors. Why are they here? Am I to die? The silent sisters
attended to the dead. The High Septon promised that no harm would come to me.
Nor will it. Septa Unella beckoned to the novices. They brought lye soap, a basin of warm
water, a pair of shears, and a long straightrazor. The sight of the steel sent a shiver through her. They

mean to shave me. A little more humiliation, a raisin for my porridge. She would not give them the
pleasure of hearing her beg. I am Cersei of House Lannister, a lion of the Rock, the rightful queen of these
Seven Kingdoms, trueborn daughter of Tywin Lannister. And hair grows back. Get on with it, she said.
The elder of the two silent sisters took up the shears. A practiced barber, no doubt; her order
often cleaned the corpses of the noble slain before returning them to their kin, and trimming beards and
cutting hair was part of that. The woman bared the queens head first. Cersei sat as still as a stone
statue as the shears clicked. Drifts of golden hair fell to the floor. She had not been allowed to tend it
properly penned up in this cell, but even unwashed and tangled it shone where the sun touched it. My
crown, the queen thought. They took the other crown away from me, and now they are stealing this one
as well. When her locks and curls were piled up around her feet, one of the novices soaped her head
and the silent sister scraped away the stubble with a razor.
Cersei hoped that would be the end of it, but no. Remove your shift, Your Grace, Septa Unella
commanded.
Here? the queen asked. Why?
You must be shorn.
Shorn, she thought, like a sheep. She yanked the shift over her head and tossed it to the floor.
Do what you will.
Then it was the soap again, the warm water, and the razor. The hair beneath her arms went
next, then her legs, and last of all the fine golden down that covered her mound. When the silent sister
crept between her legs with the razor, Cersei found herself remembering all the times that Jaime had
knelt where she was kneeling now, planting kisses on the inside of her thighs, making her wet. His kisses
were always warm. The razor was ice-cold.
When the deed was done she was as naked and vulnerable as a woman could be. Not even a
hair to hide behind. A little laugh burst from her lips, bleak and bitter.
Does Your Grace find this amusing? said Septa Scolera. No, septa, said Cersei. But one day I
will have your tongue ripped out with hot pincers, and that will be hilarious.
One of the novices had brought a robe for her, a soft white septas robe to cover her as she
made her way down the tower steps and through the sept, so any worshipers they met along the way
might be spared the sight of naked flesh. Seven save us all, what hypocrites they are. Will I be
permitted a pair of sandals? she asked. The streets are filthy.
Not so filthy as your sins, said Septa Moelle. His High Holiness has commanded that you
present yourself as the gods made you. Did you have sandals on your feet when you came forth from
your lady mothers womb?
No, septa, the queen was forced to say. Then you have your answer.

A bell began to toll. The queens long imprisonment was at an end. Cersei pulled the robe
tighter, grateful for its warmth, and said, Let us go. Her son awaited her across the city. The sooner
she set out, the sooner she would see him.
The rough stone of the steps scraped her soles as Cersei Lannister made her descent. She had
come to Baelors Sept a queen, riding in a litter. She was leaving bald and barefoot. But I am leaving.
That is all that matters.
The tower bells were singing, summoning the city to bear witness to her shame. The Great Sept
of Baelor was crowded with faithful come for the dawn service, the sound of their prayers echoing off
the dome overhead, but when the queens procession made its appearance a sudden silence fell and a
thousand eyes turned to follow her as she made her way down the aisle, past the place where her lord
father had lain in state after his murder. Cersei swept by them, looking neither right nor left. Her bare
feet slapped against the cold marble floor. She could feel the eyes. Behind their altars, the Seven
seemed to watch as well.
In the Hall of Lamps, a dozen Warriors Sons awaited her coming. Rainbow cloaks hung down
their backs, and the crystals that crested their greathelms glittered in the lamplight. Their armor was
silver plate polished to a mirror sheen, but underneath, she knew, every man of them wore a hair shirt.
Their kite shields all bore the same device: a crystal sword shining in the darkness, the ancient badge of
those the smallfolk called Swords.
Their captain knelt before her. Perhaps Your Grace will recall me. I am Ser Theodan the True,
and His High Holiness has given me command of your escort. My brothers and I will see you safely
through the city.
Cerseis gaze swept across the faces of the men behind him. And there he was: Lancel, her
cousin, Ser Kevans son, who had once professed to love her, before he decided that he loved the gods
more. My blood and my betrayer. She would not forget him. You may rise, Ser Theodan. I am ready.
The knight stood, turned, raised a hand. Two of his men stepped to the towering doors and
pushed them open, and Cersei walked through them into the open air, blinking at the sunlight like a
mole roused from its burrow.
A gusty wind was blowing, and it set the bottom of her robe snapping and flapping at her legs.
The morning air was thick with the old familiar stinks of Kings Landing. She breathed in the scents of
sour wine, bread baking, rotting fish and nightsoil, smoke and sweat and horse piss. No flower had ever
smelled so sweet. Huddled in her robe, Cersei paused atop the marble steps as the Warriors Sons
formed up around her.
It came to her suddenly that she had stood in this very spot before, on the day Lord Eddard
Stark had lost his head. That was not supposed to happen. Joff was supposed to spare his life and send
him to the Wall. Starks eldest son would have followed him as Lord of Winterfell, but Sansa would have
stayed at court, a hostage. Varys and Littlefinger had worked out the terms, and Ned Stark had

swallowed his precious honor and confessed his treason to save his daughters empty little head. I would
have made Sansa a good marriage. A Lannister marriage. Not Joff, of course, but Lancel might have
suited, or one of his younger brothers. Petyr Baelish had offered to wed the girl himself, she recalled, but
of course that was impossible; he was much too lowborn. If Joff had only done as he was told, Winterfell
would never have gone to war, and Father would have dealt with Roberts brothers.
Instead Joff had commanded that Starks head be struck off, and Lord Slynt and Ser Ilyn Payne
had hastened to obey. It was just there, the queen recalled, gazing at the spot. Janos Slynt had lifted Ned
Starks head by the hair as his lifes blood flowed down the steps, and after that there was no turning
back.
The memories seemed so distant. Joffrey was dead, and all Starks sons as well. Even her father
had perished. And here she stood on the steps of the Great Sept again, only this time it was her the mob
was staring at, not Eddard Stark.
The wide marble plaza below was as crowded as it had been on the day that Stark had died.
Everywhere she looked the queen saw eyes. The mob seemed to be equal parts men and women. Some
had children on their shoulders. Beggars and thieves, taverners and tradesfolk, tanners and stableboys
and mummers, the poorer sort of whore, all the scum had come out to see a queen brought low. And
mingled in with them were the Poor Fellows, filthy, unshaven creatures armed with spears and axes and
clad in bits of dinted plate, rusted mail, and cracked leather, under roughspun surcoats bleached white
and blazoned with the seven-pointed star of the Faith. The High Sparrows ragged army.
Part of her still yearned for Jaime to appear and rescue her from this humiliation, but her twin
was nowhere to be seen. Nor was her uncle present. That did not surprise her. Ser Kevan had made his
views plain during his last visit; her shame must not be allowed to tarnish the honor of Casterly Rock. No
lions would walk with her today. This ordeal was hers and hers alone.
Septa Unella stood to her right, Septa Moelle to her left, Septa Scolera behind her. If the queen
should bolt or balk, the three hags would drag her back inside, and this time they would see to it that
she never left her cell.
Cersei raised her head. Beyond the plaza, beyond the sea of hungry eyes and gaping mouths and
dirty faces, across the city, Aegons High Hill rose in the distance, the towers and battlements of the Red
Keep blushing pink in the light of the rising sun. It is not so far. Once she reached its gates, the worst of
her travails would be over. She would have her son again. She would have her champion. Her uncle had
promised her. Tommen is waiting for me. My little king. I can do this. I must.
Septa Unella stepped forward. A sinner comes before you, she declared. She is Cersei of
House Lannister, queen dowager, mother to His Grace King Tommen, widow of His Grace King Robert,
and she has committed grievous falsehoods and fornications.
Septa Moelle moved up on the queens right. This sinner has confessed her sins and begged for
absolution and forgiveness. His High Holiness has commanded her to demonstrate her repentance by

putting aside all pride and artifice and presenting herself as the gods made her before the good people
of the city.
Septa Scolera finished. So now this sinner comes before you with a humble heart, shorn of
secrets and concealments, naked before the eyes of gods and men, to make her walk of atonement.
Cersei had been a year old when her grandfather died. The first thing her father had done on his
ascension was to expel his own fathers grasping, lowborn mistress from Casterly Rock. The silks and
velvets Lord Tytos had lavished on her and the jewelry she had taken for herself had been stripped from
her, and she had been sent forth naked to walk through the streets of Lannisport, so the west could see
her for what she was.
Though she had been too young to witness the spectacle herself, Cersei had heard the stories
growing up from the mouths of washerwomen and guardsmen who had been there. They spoke of how
the woman had wept and begged, of the desperate way she clung to her garments when she was
commanded to disrobe, of her futile efforts to cover her breasts and her sex with her hands as she
hobbled barefoot and naked through the streets to exile. Vain and proud she was, before, she
remembered one guard saying, so haughty youd think shed forgot she come from dirt. Once we got
her clothes off her, though, she was just another whore.
If Ser Kevan and the High Sparrow thought that it would be the same with her, they were very
much mistaken. Lord Tywins blood was in her. I am a lioness. I will not cringe for them.
The queen shrugged off her robe.
She bared herself in one smooth, unhurried motion, as if she were back in her own chambers
disrobing for her bath with no one but her bedmaids looking on. When the cold wind touched her skin,
she shivered violently. It took all her strength of will not to try and hide herself with her hands, as her
grandfathers whore had done. Her fingers tightened into fists, her nails digging into her palms. They
were looking at her, all the hungry eyes. But what were they seeing? I am beautiful, she reminded
himself. How many times had Jaime told her that? Even Robert had given her that much, when he came
to her bed in his cups to pay her drunken homage with his cock.
They looked at Ned Stark the same way, though.
She had to move. Naked, shorn, barefoot, Cersei made a slow descent down the broad marble
steps. Gooseprickles rose on her arms and legs. She held her chin high, as a queen should, and her
escort fanned out ahead of her. The Poor Fellows shoved men aside to open a way through the crowd
whilst the Swords fell in on either side of her. Septa Unella, Septa Scolera, and Septa Moelle followed.
Behind them came the novice girls in white.
Whore! someone cried out. A womans voice. Women were always the cruelest where other
women were concerned.

Cersei ignored her. There will be more, and worse. These creatures have no sweeter joy in life
than jeering at their betters. She could not silence them, so she must pretend she did not hear them.
She would not see them either. She would keep her eyes on Aegons High Hill across the city, on the
towers of the Red Keep shimmering in the light. That was where she would find her salvation, if her
uncle had kept his part of their bargain.
He wanted this. Him and the High Sparrow. And the little rose as well, I do not doubt. I have
sinned and must atone, must parade my shame before the eyes of every beggar in the city. They think
that this will break my pride, that it will make an end to me, but they are wrong.
Septa Unella and Septa Moelle kept pace with her, with Septa Scolera scurrying behind, ringing a
bell. Shame, the old hag called, shame upon the sinner, shame, shame. Somewhere off to the right,
another voice sang counterpoint to hers, some bakers boy shouting, Meat pies, three pence, hot meat
pies here. The marble underfoot was cold and slick, and Cersei had to step carefully for fear of slipping.
Their path took them past the statue of Baelor the Blessed, standing tall and serene upon his plinth, his
face a study in benevolence. To look at him, you would never guess what a fool hed been. The
Targaryen dynasty had produced kings both bad and good, but none as beloved as Baelor, that pious
gentle septon-king who loved the smallfolk and the gods in equal parts, yet imprisoned his own sisters.
It was a wonder that his statue did not crumble at the sight of her bare breasts. Tyrion used to say that
King Baelor was terrified of his own cock. Once, she recalled, he had expelled all the whores from Kings
Landing. He prayed for them as they were driven from the city gates, the histories said, but would not
look at them.
Harlot, a voice screamed. Another woman. Something flew out of the crowd. Some rotted
vegetable. Brown and oozing, it sailed above her head to splash at the foot of one of the Poor Fellows. I
am not afraid. I am a lioness. She walked on. Hot pies, the bakers boy was crying. Getcha hot pies
here. Septa Scolera rang her bell, singing, Shame, shame, shame upon the sinner, shame, shame. The
Poor Fellows went before them, forcing men aside with their shields, walling off a narrow path. Cersei
followed where they led, her head held stiffly, her eyes on the far distance. Every step brought the Red
Keep nearer. Every step brought her closer to her son and her salvation.
It seemed to take a hundred years to cross the plaza, but finally marble gave way to
cobblestones beneath her feet, shops and stables and houses closed in all around them, and they began
the descent of Visenyas Hill.
The going was slower here. The street was steep and narrow, the crowds jammed together
tightly. The Poor Fellows shoved at those who blocked the way, trying to move them aside, but there
was nowhere to go, and those in the back of the crowd were shoving back. Cersei tried to keep her head
up, only to step in something slick and wet that made her slip. She might have fallen, but Septa Unella
caught her arm and kept her on her feet. Your Grace should watch where she sets her feet.
Cersei wrenched herself free. Yes, septa, she said in a meek voice, though she was angry
enough to spit. The queen walked on, clad only in gooseprickles and pride. She looked for the Red Keep,
but it was hidden now, walled off from her gaze by the tall timbered buildings to either side. Shame,

shame, sang Septa Scolera, her bell clanging. Cersei tried to walk faster, but soon came up against the
backs of the Stars in front of her and had to slow her steps again. A man just ahead was selling skewers
of roast meat from a cart, and the procession halted as the Poor Fellows moved him out of the way. The
meat looked suspiciously like rat to Cerseis eyes, but the smell of it filled the air, and half the men
around them were gnawing away with sticks in hand by the time the street was clear enough for her to
resume her trek. Want some, Your Grace? one man called out. He was a big, burly brute with pig eyes,
a massive gut, and an unkempt black beard that reminded her of Robert. When she looked away in
disgust, he flung the skewer at her. It struck her on the leg and tumbled to the street, and the
half-cooked meat left a smear of grease and blood down her thigh.
The shouting seemed louder here than on the plaza, perhaps because the mob was so much
closer. Whore and sinner were most common, but brotherfucker and cunt and traitor were
flung at her as well, and now and again she heard someone shout out for Stannis or Margaery. The
cobbles underfoot were filthy, and there was so little space that the queen could not even walk around
the puddles. No one has ever died of wet feet, she told herself. She wanted to believe the puddles were
just rainwater, though horse piss was just as likely.
More refuse showered down from windows and balconies: half-rotted fruit, pails of beer, eggs
that exploded into sulfurous stink when they cracked open on the ground. Then someone flung a dead
cat over the Poor Fellows and Warriors Sons alike. The carcass hit the cobbles so hard that it burst
open, spattering her lower legs with entrails and maggots.
Cersei walked on. I am blind and deaf, and they are worms, she told herself. Shame, shame,
the septas sang. Chestnuts, hot roast chestnuts, a peddler cried. Queen Cunt, a drunkard
pronounced solemnly from a balcony above, lifting his cup to her in a mocking toast. All hail the royal
teats! Words are wind, Cersei thought. Words cannot harm me.
Halfway down Visenyas Hill the queen fell for the first time, when her foot slipped in something
that might have been nightsoil. When Septa Unella pulled her up, her knee was scraped and bloody. A
ragged laugh rippled through the crowd, and some man shouted out an offer to kiss it and make it
better. Cersei looked behind her. She could still see the great dome and seven crystal towers of the
Great Sept of Baelor atop the hill. Have I really come such a little way? Worse, a hundred times worse,
she had lost sight of the Red Keep. Where  where  ?
Your Grace. The captain of her escort stepped up beside her. Cersei had forgotten his name.
You must continue. The crowd is growing unruly.
Yes, she thought. Unruly. I am not afraid
You should be. He yanked at her arm, pulling her along beside him. She staggered down the
hilldownward, ever downwardwincing with every step, letting him support her. It should be Jaime
beside me. He would draw his golden sword and slash a path right through the mob, carving the eyes
out of the head of every man who dared to look at her.

The paving stones were cracked and uneven, slippery underfoot, and rough against her soft feet.
Her heel came down on something sharp, a stone or piece of broken crockery. Cersei cried out in pain. I
asked for sandals, she spat at Septa Unella. You could have given me sandals, you could have done
that much. The knight wrenched at her arm again, as if she were some common serving wench. Has he
forgotten who I am? She was the queen of Westeros; he had no right to lay rough hands on her.
Near the bottom of the hill, the slope gentled and the street began to widen. Cersei could see
the Red Keep again, shining crimson in the morning sun atop Aegons High Hill. I must keep walking. She
wrenched free of Ser Theodans grasp. You do not need to drag me, ser. She limped on, leaving a trail
of bloody footprints on the stones behind her.
She walked through mud and dung, bleeding, goosefleshed, hobbling. All around her was a
babble of sound. My wife has sweeter teats than those, a man shouted. A teamster cursed as the Poor
Fellows ordered his wagon out of the way. Shame, shame, shame on the sinner, chanted the septas.
Look at this one, a whore called from a brothel window, lifting her skirts to the men below, its not
had half as many cocks up it as hers. Bells were ringing, ringing, ringing. That cant be the queen, a
boy said, shes saggy as my mum. This is my penance, Cersei told herself. I have sinned most
grievously, this is my atonement. It will be over soon, it will be behind me, then I can forget.
The queen began to see familiar faces. A bald man with bushy side-whiskers frowned down from
a window with her fathers frown, and for an instant looked so much like Lord Tywin that she stumbled.
A young girl sat beneath a fountain, drenched in spray, and stared at her with Melara Hetherspoons
accusing eyes. She saw Ned Stark, and beside him little Sansa with her auburn hair and a shaggy grey
dog that might have been her wolf. Every child squirming through the crowd became her brother Tyrion,
jeering at her as he had jeered when Joffrey died. And there was Joff as well, her son, her firstborn, her
beautiful bright boy with his golden curls and his sweet smile, he had such lovely lips, he 
That was when she fell the second time.
She was shaking like a leaf when they pulled her to her feet. Please, she said. Mother have
mercy. I confessed.
You did, said Septa Moelle. This is your atonement.
It is not much farther, said Septa Unella. See? She pointed. Up the hill, thats all.
Up the hill. Thats all. It was true. They were at the foot of Aegons High Hill, the castle above
them.
Whore, someone screamed. Brotherfucker, another voice added. Abomination.
Want a suck on this, Your Grace? A man in a butchers apron pulled his cock out of his
breeches, grinning. It did not matter. She was almost home.
Cersei began to climb.

If anything, the jeers and shouts were cruder here. Her walk had not taken her through Flea
Bottom, so its denizens had packed onto the lower slopes of Aegons High Hill to see the show. The faces
leering out at her from behind the shields and spears of the Poor Fellows seemed twisted, monstrous,
hideous. Pigs and naked children were everywhere underfoot, crippled beggars and cutpurses swarmed
like roaches through the press. She saw men whose teeth had been filed into points, hags with goiters as
big as their heads, a whore with a huge striped snake draped about breasts and shoulders, a man whose
cheeks and brow were covered with open sores that wept grey pus. They grinned and licked their lips
and hooted at her as she went limping past, her breasts heaving with the effort of the climb. Some
shouted obscene proposals, others insults. Words are wind, she thought, words cannot hurt me. I am
beautiful, the most beautiful woman in all Westeros, Jaime says so, Jaime would never lie to me. Even
Robert, Robert never loved me, but he saw that I was beautiful, he wanted me.
She did not feel beautiful, though. She felt old, used, filthy, ugly. There were stretch marks on
her belly from the children she had borne, and her breasts were not as firm as they had been when she
was younger. Without a gown to hold them up, they sagged against her chest. I should not have done
this. I was their queen, but now theyve seen, theyve seen, theyve seen. I should never have let them
see. Gowned and crowned, she was a queen. Naked, bloody, limping, she was only a woman, not so very
different from their wives, more like their mothers than their pretty little maiden daughters. What have
I done?
There was something in her eyes, stinging, blurring her sight. She could not cry, she would not
cry, the worms must never see her weep. Cersei rubbed her eyes with the heels of her hands. A gust of
cold wind made her shiver violently.
And suddenly the hag was there, standing in the crowd with her pendulous teats and her warty
greenish skin, leering with the rest, with malice shining from her crusty yellow eyes. Queen you shall
be, she hissed, until there comes another, younger and more beautiful, to cast you down and take all
you hold most dear.
And then there was no stopping the tears. They burned down the queens cheeks like acid.
Cersei gave a sharp cry, covered her nipples with one arm, slid her other hand down to hide her slit, and
began to run, shoving her way past the line of Poor Fellows, crouching as she scrambled crab-legged up
the hill. Partway up she stumbled and fell, rose, then fell again ten yards farther on. The next thing she
knew she was crawling, scrambling uphill on all fours like a dog as the good folks of Kings Landing made
way for her, laughing and jeering and applauding her.
Then all at once the crowd parted and seemed to dissolve, and there were the castle gates
before her, and a line of spearmen in gilded half-helms and crimson cloaks. Cersei heard the gruff,
familiar sound of her uncle growling orders and glimpsed a flash of white to either side as Ser Boros
Blount and Ser Meryn Trant strode toward her in their pale plate and snowy cloaks. My son, she cried.
Where is my son? Where is Tommen?
Not here. No son should have to bear witness to his mothers shame. Ser Kevans voice was
harsh. Cover her up.

Then Jocelyn was bending over her, wrapping her in a soft clean blanket of green wool to cover
her nakedness. A shadow fell across them both, blotting out the sun. The queen felt cold steel slide
beneath her, a pair of great armored arms lifting her off the ground, lifting her up into the air as easily as
she had lifted Joffrey when he was still a babe. A giant, thought Cersei, dizzy, as he carried her with
great strides toward the gatehouse. She had heard that giants could still be found in the godless wild
beyond the Wall. That is just a tale. Am I dreaming?
No. Her savior was real. Eight feet tall or maybe taller, with legs as thick around as trees, he had
a chest worthy of a plow horse and shoulders that would not disgrace an ox. His armor was plate steel,
enameled white and bright as a maidens hopes, and worn over gilded mail. A greathelm hid his face.
From its crest streamed seven silken plumes in the rainbow colors of the Faith. A pair of golden
seven-pointed stars clasped his billowing cloak at the shoulders.
A white cloak.
Ser Kevan had kept his part of the bargain. Tommen, her precious little boy, had named her
champion to the Kingsguard.
Cersei never saw where Qyburn came from, but suddenly he was there beside them, scrambling
to keep up with her champions long strides. Your Grace, he said, it is so good to have you back. May I
have the honor of presenting our newest member of the Kingsguard? This is Ser Robert Strong.
Ser Robert, Cersei whispered, as they entered the gates. If it please Your Grace, Ser Robert
has taken a holy vow of silence, Qyburn said. He has sworn that he will not speak until all of His
Graces enemies are dead and evil has been driven from the realm.
Yes, thought Cersei Lannister. Oh, yes.
TYRION
The pile of parchments was formidably high. Tyrion looked at it and sighed. I had understood
you were a band of brothers. Is this the love a brother bears a brother? Where is the trust? The
friendship, the fond regard, the deep affection that only men who have fought and bled together can
ever know?
All in time, said Brown Ben Plumm. After you sign, said Inkpots, sharpening a quill.
Kasporio the Cunning touched his sword hilt. If you would like to start the bleeding now, I will
happly oblige you.
How kind of you to offer, said Tyrion. I think not.

Inkpots placed the parchments before Tyrion and handed him the quill. Here is your ink. From
Old Volantis, this. Twill last as long as proper maesters black. All you need do is sign and pass the notes
to me. Ill do the rest.
Tyrion gave him a crooked grin. Might I read them first?
If you like. They are all the same, by and large. Except for the ones at the bottom, but well get
to those in due course.
Oh, I am sure we will. For most men, there was no cost to joining a company, but he was not
most men. He dipped the quill into the inkpot, leaned over the first parchment, paused, looked up.
Would you prefer me to sign Yollo or Hugor Hill?
Brown Ben crinkled up his eyes. Would you prefer to be returned to Yezzans heirs or just
beheaded?
The dwarf laughed and signed the parchment, Tyrion of House Lannister. As he passed it left to
Inkpots, he riffled through the pile underneath. There are  what, fifty? Sixty? Id thought there were
five hundred Second Sons.
Five hundred thirteen at present, Inkpots said. When you sign our book, we will be five
hundred fourteen.
So only one in ten receives a note? That hardly seems fair. I thought you were all
share-and-share-alike in the free companies. He signed another sheet.
Brown Ben chuckled. Oh, all share. But not alike. The Second Sons are not unlike a family 
 and every family has its drooling cousins. Tyrion signed another note. The parchment
crinkled crisply as he slid it toward the paymaster. There are cells down in the bowels of Casterly Rock
where my lord father kept the worst of ours. He dipped his quill in the inkpot. Tyrion of House
Lannister, he scratched out, promising to pay the bearer of the note one hundred golden dragons. Every
stroke of the quill leaves me a little poorer  or would, if I were not a beggar to begin with. One day he
might rue these signatures. But not this day. He blew on the wet ink, slid the parchment to the
paymaster, and signed the one beneath. And again. And again. And again. This wounds me deeply, I will
have you know, he told them between signatures. In Westeros, the word of a Lannister is considered
good as gold.
Inkpots shrugged. This is not Westeros. On this side of the narrow sea, we put our promises on
paper. As each sheet was passed to him, he scattered fine sand across the signature to drink up excess
ink, shook it off, and set the note aside. Debts written on the wind tend to be  forgotten, shall we
say?
Not by us. Tyrion signed another sheet. And another. He had found a rhythm now. A
Lannister always pays his debts.

Plumm chuckled. Aye, but a sellswords word is worthless.
Well, yours is, thought Tyrion, and thank the gods for that. True, but I will not be a sellsword
until Ive signed your book.
Soon enough, said Brown Ben. After the notes.
I am dancing as fast as I can. He wanted to laugh, but that would have ruined the game.
Plumm was enjoying this, and Tyrion had no intention of spoiling his fun. Let him go on thinking that hes
bent me over and fucked me up the arse, and Ill go on buying steel swords with parchment dragons. If
ever he went back to Westeros to claim his birthright, he would have all the gold of Casterly Rock to
make good on his promises. If not, well, hed be dead, and his new brothers could wipe their arses with
these parchments. Perhaps some might turn up in Kings Landing with their scraps in hand, hoping to
convince his sweet sister to make good on them. And would that I could be a roach in the rushes to
witness that.
The writing on the parchments changed about halfway down the pile. The hundred-dragon
notes were all for serjeants. Below them the amounts suddenly grew larger. Now Tyrion was promising
to pay the bearer one thousand golden dragons. He shook his head, laughed, signed. And again. And
again. So, he said as he was scrawling, what will be my duties with the company?
You are too ugly to be Bokkokos butt boy, said Kasporio, but you might do as arrow fodder.
Better than you know, said Tyrion, refusing to rise to the bait. A small man with a big shield
will drive the archers mad. A wiser man than you once told me that.
You will work with Inkpots, said Brown Ben Plumm. You will work for Inkpots, said Inkpots.
Keeping books, counting coin, writing contracts and letters.
Gladly, said Tyrion. I love books.
What else would you do? sneered Kasporio. Look at you. You are not fit to fight.
I once had charge of all the drains in Casterly Rock, Tyrion said mildly. Some of them had
been stopped up for years, but I soon had them draining merrily away. He dipped the quill in the ink
again. Another dozen notes, and he would be done. Perhaps I could supervise your camp followers. We
cant have the men stopped up, now can we?
That jape did not please Brown Ben. Stay away from the whores, he warned. Most o them
are poxy, and they talk. Youre not the first escaped slave to join the company, but that dont mean we
need to shout your presence. I wont have you parading about where you might be seen. Stay inside as
much as you can, and shit into your bucket. Too many eyes at the latrines. And never go beyond our
camp without my leave. We can dress you up in squires steel, pretend youre Jorahs butt boy, but
theres some will see right through that. Once Meereen is taken and were away to Westeros, you can
prance about all you like in gold and crimson. Till then, though 

 I shall live beneath a rock and never make a sound. You have my word on that. Tyrion of
House Lannister, he signed once more, with a flourish. That was the last parchment. Three notes
remained, different from the rest. Two were written on fine vellum and made out by name. For Kasporio
the Cunning, ten thousand dragons. The same for Inkpots, whose true name appeared to be Tybero
Istarion. Tybero? said Tyrion. That sounds almost Lannister. Are you some long-lost cousin?
Perhaps. I always pay my debts as well. It is expected of a paymaster. Sign.
He signed.
Brown Bens note was the last. That one had been inscribed upon a sheepskin scroll. One
hundred thousand golden dragons, fifty hides of fertile land, a castle, and a lordship. Well and well. This
Plumm does not come cheaply. Tyrion plucked at his scar and wondered if he ought to make a show of
indignation. When you bugger a man you expect a squeal or two. He could curse and swear and rant of
robbery, refuse to sign for a time, then give in reluctantly, protesting all the while. But he was sick of
mummery, so instead he grimaced, signed, and handed the scroll back to Brown Ben. Your cock is as
big as in the stories, he said. Consider me well and truly fucked, Lord Plumm.
Brown Ben blew on his signature. My pleasure, Imp. And now, we make you one o us. Inkpots,
fetch the book.
The book was leather-bound with iron hinges, and large enough to eat your supper off. Inside its
heavy wooden boards were names and dates going back more than a century. The Second Sons are
amongst the oldest of the free companies, Inkpots said as he was turning pages. This is the fourth
book. The names of every man to serve with us are written here. When they joined, where they fought,
how long they served, the manner of their deathsall in the book. You will find famous names in here,
some from your Seven Kingdoms. Aegor Rivers served a year with us, before he left to found the Golden
Company. Bittersteel, you call him. The Bright Prince, Aerion Targaryen, he was a Second Son. And
Rodrik Stark, the Wandering Wolf, him as well. No, not that ink. Here, use this. He unstoppered a new
pot and set it down.
Tyrion cocked his head. Red ink?
A tradition of the company, Inkpots explained. There was a time when each new man wrote
his name in his own blood, but as it happens, blood makes piss-poor ink.
Lannisters love tradition. Lend me your knife.
Inkpots raised an eyebrow, shrugged, slipped his dagger from its sheath, and handed it across
hiltfirst. It still hurts, Halfmaester, thank you very much, thought Tyrion, as he pricked the ball of his
thumb. He squeezed a fat drop of blood into the inkpot, traded the dagger for a fresh quill, and
scrawled, Tyrion of House Lannister, Lord of Casterly
Rock, in a big bold hand, just below Jorah Mormonts far more modest signature.

And its done. The dwarf rocked back on the camp stool. Is that all that you require of me?
Dont I need to swear an oath? Kill a baby? Suck the captains cock?
Suck whatever you like. Inkpots turned the book around and dusted the page with a bit of fine
sand. For most of us, the signature suffices, but I would hate to disappoint a new brother-in-arms.
Welcome to the Second Sons, Lord Tyrion.
Lord Tyrion. The dwarf liked the sound of that. The Second Sons might not enjoy the shining
reputation of the Golden Company, but they had won some famous victories over the centuries. Have
other lords served with the company?
Landless lords, said Brown Ben. Like you, Imp.
Tyrion hopped down from the stool. My previous brother was entirely unsatisfactory. I hope
for more from my new ones. Now how do I go about securing arms and armor?
Will you want a pig to ride as well? asked Kasporio. Why, I did not know your wife was in the
company, said Tyrion. Thats kind of you to offer her, but I would prefer a horse.
The bravo reddened, but Inkpots laughed aloud and Brown Ben went so far as to chuckle.
Inkpots, show him to the wagons. He can have his pick from the company steel. The girl too. Put a helm
on her, a bit o mail, might be some will take her for a boy.
Lord Tyrion, with me. Inkpots held the tent flap to let him waddle through. I will have Snatch
take you to the wagons. Get your woman and meet him by the cook tent.
She is not my woman. Perhaps you should get her. All she does of late is sleep and glare at
me.
You need to beat her harder and fuck her more often, the paymaster offered helpfully. Bring
her, leave her, do what you will. Snatch will not care. Come find me when you have your armor, and I
will start you on the ledgers.
As you wish.
Tyrion found Penny asleep in a corner of their tent, curled up on a thin straw pallet beneath a
heap of soiled bedclothes. When he touched her with the toe of his boot, she rolled over, blinked at
him, and yawned. Hugor? What is it?
Talking again, are we? It was better than her usual sullen silence. All over an abandoned dog
and pig. I saved the two of us from slavery, you would think some gratitude might be in order. If you
sleep any longer, youre like to miss the war.
Im sad. She yawned again. And tired. So tired.
Tired or sick? Tyrion knelt beside her pallet. You look pale. He felt her brow. Is it hot in here, or
does she have a touch of fever? He dared not ask that question aloud. Even hard men like the Second

Sons were terrified of mounting the pale mare. If they thought Penny was sick, they would drive her off
without a moments hesitation. They might even return us to Yezzans heirs, notes or no notes. I have
signed their book. The old way, in blood. I am now a Second Son.
Penny sat up, rubbing the sleep from her eyes. What about me? Can I sign too?
I think not. Some free companies have been known to take women, but  well, they are not
Second Daughters, after all.
We, she said. If youre one of them, you should say we, not they. Has anyone seen Pretty Pig?
Inkpots said hed ask after her. Or Crunch, has there been word of Crunch?
Only if you trust Kasporio. Plumms not-so-cunning second-in-command claimed that three
Yunkish slave-catchers were prowling through the camps, asking after a pair of escaped dwarfs. One of
them was carrying a tall spear with a dogs head impaled upon its point, the way that Kaspo told it. Such
tidings were not like to get Penny out of bed, however. No word as yet, he lied. Come. We need to
find some armor for you.
She gave him a wary look. Armor? Why?
Something my old master-at-arms told me. Never go to battle naked, lad, he said. I take him
at his word. Besides, now that Im a sellsword, I really ought to have a sword to sell. She still showed no
signs of moving. Tyrion seized her by the wrist, pulled her to her feet, and threw a fistful of clothing into
her face. Dress. Wear the cloak with the hood and keep your head down. Were supposed to be a pair
of likely lads, just in case the slave-catchers are watching.
Snatch was waiting by the cook tent chewing sourleaf when the two dwarfs turned up, cloaked
and hooded. I hear the two o you are going to fight for us, the serjeant said. That should have them
pissing in Meereen. Either o you ever killed a man?
I have, said Tyrion. I swat them down like flies.
What with?
An axe, a dagger, a choice remark. Though Im deadliest with my crossbow.
Snatch scratched at his stubble with the point of his hook. Nasty thing, a crossbow. How many
men you kill with that?
Nine. His father counted for at least that many, surely. Lord of Casterly Rock, Warden of the
West, Shield of Lannisport, Hand of the King, husband, brother, father, father, father.
Nine. Snatch snorted and spat out a mouthful of red slime. Aiming for Tyrions feet, perhaps,
but it landed on his knee. Plainly that was what he thought of nine. The serjeants fingers were stained
a mottled red from the juice of the sourleaf he chewed. He put two of them into his mouth and

whistled. Kem! Get over here, you fucking pisspot. Kem came running. Take Lord and Lady Imp to the
wagons, have Hammer fix them up with some company steel.
Hammer might be passed-out drunk, Kem cautioned. Piss in his face. Thatll wake him up.
Snatch turned back to Tyrion and Penny. We never had no bloody dwarfs before, but boys we never
lacked for. Sons o this whore or that one, little fools run off from home to have adventures, butt boys,
squires, and the like. Some o their shit might be small enough to fit imps. Its the shit they were wear ing
when they died, like as not, but I know that wont bother fuckers fierce as you two. Nine, was it? He
shook his head and walked away.
The Second Sons kept their company armor in six big wayns drawn up near the center of their
camp. Kem led the way, swinging his spear as if it were a staff. How does a Kings Landing lad end up
with a free company? Tyrion asked him.
The lad gave him a wary squint. Who told you I was from Kings Landing?
No one. Every word out of your mouth reeks of Flea Bottom. Your wits gave you away.
Theres no one clever as a Kingslander, they say.
That seemed to startle him. Who says that?
Everyone. Me. Since when?
Since I just made it up. For ages, he lied. My father was wont to say it. Did you know Lord
Tywin, Kem?
The Hand. Once I saw him riding up the hill. His men had red cloaks and little lions on their
helms. I liked those helms. His mouth tightened. I never liked the Hand, though. He sacked the city.
And then he smashed us on the Blackwater.
You were there?
With Stannis. Lord Tywin come up with Renlys ghost and took us in the flank. I dropped my
spear and ran, but at the ships this bloody knight said, Wheres your spear, boy? We got no room for
cravens, and they buggered off and left me, and thousands more besides. Later I heard how your father
was sending them as fought with Stannis to the Wall, so I made my way across the narrow sea and
joined up with the Second Sons.
Do you miss Kings Landing?
Some. I miss this boy, he  he was a friend of mine. And my brother, Kennet, but he died on
the bridge of ships.
Too many good men died that day. Tyrions scar was itching fiercely. He picked at it with a
fingernail.
I miss the food too, Kem said wistfully. Your mothers cooking?

Rats wouldnt eat my mothers cooking. There was this pot shop, though. No one ever made a
bowl o brown like them. So thick you could stand your spoon up in the bowl, with chunks of this and
that. You ever have yourself a bowl o brown, Halfman?
A time or two. Singers stew, I call it.
Whys that?
It tastes so good it makes me want to sing.
Kem liked that. Singers stew. Ill ask for that next time I get back to Flea Bottom. What do you
miss, Halfman?
Jaime, thought Tyrion. Shae. Tysha. My wife, I miss my wife, the wife I hardly knew. Wine,
whores, and wealth, he answered. Especially the wealth. Wealth will buy you wine and whores. It will
also buy you swords, and the Kems to wield them.
Is it true the chamber pots in Casterly Rock are made of solid gold? Kem asked him.
You should not believe everything you hear. Especially where House Lannister is concerned.
They say all Lannisters are twisty snakes.
Snakes? Tyrion laughed. That sound you hear is my lord father, slithering in his grave. We are
lions, or so we like to say. But it makes no matter, Kem. Step on a snake or a lions tail, youll end up just
as dead.
By then they had reached the armory, such as it was. The smith, this fabled Hammer, proved to
be a freakish-looking hulk with a left arm that appeared twice as thick as his right. Hes drunk more
than not, Kem said. Brown Ben lets it go, but one day well get us a real armorer. Hammers
apprentice was a wiry red-haired youth called Nail. Of course. What else? mused Tyrion. Hammer was
sleeping off a drunk when they reached the forge, just as Kem had prophesied, but Nail had no objection
to the two dwarfs clambering through the wagons. Crap iron, most of it, he warned them, but youre
welcome to anything you can use.
Under roofs of bent wood and stiffened leather, the wagon beds were heaped high with old
weaponry and armor. Tyrion took one look and sighed, remembering the gleaming racks of swords and
spears and halberds in the armory of the Lannisters below Casterly Rock. This may take a while, he
declared.
Theres sound steel here if you can find it, a deep voice growled. None of it is pretty, but it
will stop a sword.
A big knight stepped down from the back of a wagon, clad head to heel in company steel. His
left greave did not match his right, his gorget was spotted with rust, his vambraces rich and ornate,
inlaid with niello flowers. On his right hand was a gauntlet of lobstered steel, on his left a fingerless mitt

of rusted mail. The nipples on his muscled breastplate had a pair of iron rings through them. His
greathelm sported a rams horns, one of which was broken.
When he took it off, he revealed the battered face of Jorah Mormont. He looks every inch a
sellsword and not at all like the half-broken thing we took from Yezzans cage, Tyrion reflected. His
bruises had mostly faded by now, and the swelling in his face had largely subsided, so Mormont looked
almost human once again  though only vaguely like himself. The demons mask the slavers had burned
into his right cheek to mark him for a dangerous and disobedient slave would never leave him. Ser Jorah
had never been what one might call a comely man. The brand had transformed his face into something
frightening.
Tyrion grinned. As long as I look prettier than you, I will be happy. He turned to Penny. You
take that wagon. Ill start with this one.
It will go faster if we look together. She plucked up a rusted iron half-helm, giggled, and stuck
it on her head. Do I look fearsome?
You look like a mummer girl with a pot on her head. Thats a halfhelm. You want a greathelm.
He found one, and swapped it for the halfhelm.
Its too big. Pennys voice echoed hollowly inside the steel. I cant see out. She took the
helm off and flung it aside. Whats wrong with the halfhelm?
Its open-faced. Tyrion pinched her nose. I am fond of looking at your nose. I would rather
that you kept it.
Her eyes got big. You like my nose?
Oh, Seven save me. Tyrion turned away and began rooting amongst some piles of old armor
toward the back of the wagon.
Are there any other parts of me you like? Penny asked.
Perhaps she meant that to sound playful. It sounded sad instead. I am fond of all of your parts,
Tyrion said, in hopes of ending any further discussion of the subject, and even fonder of mine own.
Why should we need armor? Were only mummers. We just pretend to fight.
You pretend very well, said Tyrion, examining a shirt of heavy iron mail so full of holes that it
almost looked moth-eaten. What sort of moths eat chainmail? Pretending to be dead is one way to
survive a battle. Good armor is another. Though there is precious little of that here, I fear. At the Green
Fork, he had fought in mismatched scraps of plate from Lord Leffords wagons, with a spiked bucket
helm that made it look as if someone had upended a slops pail over his head. This company steel was
worse. Not just old and ill fitting, but dinted, cracked, and brittle. Is that dried blood, or only rust? He
sniffed at it but still could not be sure.

Heres a crossbow. Penny showed it to him.
Tyrion glanced at it. I cannot use a stirrup winch. My legs are not long enough. A crank would
serve me better. Though, if truth be told, he did not want a crossbow. They took too long to reload.
Even if he lurked by the latrine ditch waiting for some enemy to take a squat, the chances of his losing
more than one quarrel would not be good.
Instead he picked up a morningstar, gave it a swing, put it down again. Too heavy. He passed
over a warhammer (too long), a studded mace (also too heavy), and half a dozen longswords before he
found a dirk he liked, a nasty piece of steel with a triangular blade. This might serve, he said. The blade
had a bit of rust on it, but that would only make it nastier. He found a wood-and-leather sheath that fit
and slipped the dirk inside.
A little sword for a little man? joked Penny. Its a dirk and made for a big man. Tyrion
showed her an old long-sword. This is a sword. Try it.
Penny took it, swung it, frowned. Too heavy.
Steel weighs more than wood. Chop through a mans neck with that thing, though, and his
head is not like to turn into a melon. He took the sword back from her and inspected it more closely.
Cheap steel. And notched. Here, see? I take back what I said. You need a better blade to hack off
heads.
I dont want to hack off heads.
Nor should you. Keep your cuts below the knee. Calf, hamstring, ankle  even giants fall if you
slice their feet off. Once theyre down, theyre no bigger than you.
Penny looked as though she was about to cry. Last night I dreamed my brother was alive again.
We were jousting before some great lord, riding Crunch and Pretty Pig, and men were throwing roses at
us. We were so happy 
Tyrion slapped her.
It was a soft blow, all in all, a little flick of the wrist, with hardly any force behind it. It did not
even leave a mark upon her cheek. But her eyes filled with tears all the same.
If you want to dream, go back to sleep, he told her. When you wake up, well still be escaped
slaves in the middle of a siege. Crunch is dead. The pig as well, most like. Now find some armor and put
it on, and never mind where it pinches. The mummer show is over. Fight or hide or shit yourself, as you
like, but whatever you decide to do, youll do it clad in steel.
Penny touched the cheek hed slapped. We should never have run. Were not sellswords.
Were not any kind of swords. It wasnt so bad with Yezzan. It wasnt. Nurse was cruel sometimes but
Yezzan never was. We were his favorites, his  his 

Slaves. The word you want is slaves.
Slaves, she said, flushing. We were his special slaves, though. Just like Sweets. His treasures.
His pets, thought Tyrion. And he loved us so much that he sent us to the pit, to be devoured by
lions.
She was not all wrong. Yezzans slaves ate better than many peasants back in the Seven
Kingdoms and were less like to starve to death come winter. Slaves were chattels, aye. They could be
bought and sold, whipped and branded, used for the carnal pleasure of their owners, bred to make
more slaves. In that sense they were no more than dogs or horses. But most lords treated their dogs and
horses well enough. Proud men might shout that they would sooner die free than live as slaves, but
pride was cheap. When the steel struck the flint, such men were rare as dragons teeth; elsewise the
world would not have been so full of slaves. There has never been a slave who did not choose to be a
slave, the dwarf reflected. Their choice may be between bondage and death, but the choice is always
there.
Tyrion Lannister did not except himself. His tongue had earned him some stripes on the back in
the beginning, but soon enough he had learned the tricks of pleasing Nurse and the noble Yezzan. Jorah
Mormont had fought longer and harder, but he would have come to the same place in the end.
And Penny, well 
Penny had been searching for a new master since the day her brother Groat had lost his head.
She wants someone to take care of her, someone to tell her what to do.
It would have been too cruel to say so, however. Instead Tyrion said, Yezzans special slaves did
not escape the pale mare. Theyre dead, the lot of them. Sweets was the first to go. Their mammoth
master had died on the day of their escape, Brown Ben Plumm had told him. Neither he nor Kasporio
nor any of the other sellswords knew the fate of the denizens of Yezzans grotesquerie  but if Pretty
Penny needed lies to stop her mooning, lie to her he would. If you want to be a slave again, I will find
you a kind master when this war is done, and sell you for enough gold to get me home, Tyrion
promised her. Ill find you some nice Yunkishman to give you another pretty golden collar, with little
bells on it that will tinkle everywhere you go. First, though, you will need to survive whats coming. No
one buys dead mummers.
Or dead dwarfs, said Jorah Mormont. We are all like to be feeding worms by the time this
battle is done. The Yunkaii have lost this war, though it may take them some time to know it. Meereen
has an army of Unsullied infantry, the finest in the world. And Meereen has dragons. Three of them,
once the queen returns. She will. She must. Our side consists of two score Yunkish lordlings, each with
his own half-trained monkey men. Slaves on stilts, slaves in chains  they may have troops of blind men
and palsied children too, I would not put it past them.
Oh, I know, said Tyrion. The Second Sons are on the losing side. They need to turn their
cloaks again and do it now. He grinned. Leave that to me.

THE KINGBREAKER
A pale shadow and a dark, the two conspirators came together in the quiet of the armory on the
Great Pyramids second level, amongst racks of spears, sheaves of quarrels, and walls hung with trophies
from forgotten battles.
Tonight, said Skahaz mo Kandaq. The brass face of a blood bat peered out from beneath the
hood of his patchwork cloak. All my men will be in place. The word is Groleo.
Groleo. That is fitting, I suppose. Yes. What was done to him  you were at court?
One guardsman amongst forty. All waiting for the empty tabard on the throne to speak the
command so we might cut down Bloodbeard and the rest. Do you think the Yunkaii would ever have
dared present Daenerys with the head of her hostage?
No, thought Selmy. Hizdahr seemed distraught.
Sham. His own kin of Loraq were returned unharmed. You saw. The Yunkaii played us a
mummers farce, with noble Hizdahr as chief mummer. The issue was never Yurkhaz zo Yunzak. The
other slavers would gladly have trampled that old fool themselves. This was to give Hizdahr a pretext to
kill the dragons.
Ser Barristan chewed on that. Would he dare?
He dared to kill his queen. Why not her pets? If we do not act, Hizdahr will hesitate for a time,
to give proof of his reluctance and allow the Wise Masters the chance to rid him of the Stormcrow and
the bloodrider. Then he will act. They want the dragons dead before the Volantene fleet arrives.
Aye, they would. It all fit. That did not mean Barristan Selmy liked it any better. That will not
happen. His queen was the Mother of Dragons; he would not allow her children to come to harm. The
hour of the wolf. The blackest part of night, when all the worlds asleep. He had first heard those words
from Tywin Lannister outside the walls of Duskendale. He gave me a day to bring out Aerys. Unless I
returned with the king by dawn of the following day, he would take the town with steel and fire, he told
me. It was the hour of the wolf when I went in and the hour of the wolf when we emerged. Grey Worm
and the Unsullied will close and bar the gates at first light.
Better to attack at first light, Skahaz said. Burst from the gates and swarm across the siege
lines, smash the Yunkaii as they come stumbling from their beds.
No. The two of them had argued this before. There is a peace, signed and sealed by Her
Grace the queen. We will not be the first to break it. Once we have taken Hizdahr, we will form a council
to rule in his place and demand that the Yunkaii return our hostages and withdraw their armies. Should
they refuse, then and only then will we inform them that the peace is broken, and go forth to give them
battle. Your way is dishonorable.

Your way is stupid, the Shavepate said. The hour is ripe. Our freed-men are ready. Hungry.
That much was true, Selmy knew. Symon Stripeback of the Free Brothers and Mollono Yos Dob
of the Stalwart Shields were both eager for battle, intent on proving themselves and washing out all the
wrongs they had suffered in a tide of Yunkish blood. Only Marselen of the Mothers Men shared Ser
Barristans doubts. We discussed this. You agreed it would be my way.
I agreed, the Shavepate grumbled, but that was before Groleo. The head. The slavers have no
honor.
We do, said Ser Barristan.
The Shavepate muttered something in Ghiscari, then said, As you wish. Though we will rue your
old mans honor before this game is done, I think. What of Hizdahrs guards?
His Grace keeps two men by him when he sleeps. One on the door of his bedchamber, a second
within, in an adjoining alcove. Tonight it will be Khrazz and Steelskin.
Khrazz, the Shavepate grumbled. That I do not like.
It need not come to blood, Ser Barristan told him. I mean to talk to Hizdahr. If he understands
we do not intend to kill him, he may command his guards to yield.
And if not? Hizdahr must not escape us.
He will not escape. Selmy did not fear Khrazz, much less Steelskin. They were only pit fighters.
Hizdahrs fearsome collection of former fighting slaves made indifferent guards at best. Speed and
strength and ferocity they had, and some skill at arms as well, but blood games were poor training for
protecting kings. In the pits their foes were announced with horns and drums, and after the battle was
done and won the victors could have their wounds bound up and quaff some milk of the poppy for the
pain, knowing that the threat was past and they were free to drink and feast and whore until the next
fight. But the battle was never truly done for a knight of the Kingsguard. Threats came from everywhere
and nowhere, at any time of day or night. No trumpets announced the foe: vassals, servants, friends,
brothers, sons, even wives, any of them might have knives concealed beneath their cloaks and murder
hidden in their hearts. For every hour of fighting, a Kingsguard knight spent ten thousand hours
watching, waiting, standing silent in the shadows. King Hizdahrs pit fighters were already growing bored
and restive with their new duties, and bored men were lax, slow to react.
I shall deal with Khrazz, said Ser Barristan. Just make certain I do not need to deal with any
Brazen Beasts as well.
Have no fear. We will have Marghaz in chains before he can make mischief. I told you, the
Brazen Beasts are mine.
You say you have men amongst the Yunkishmen?

Sneaks and spies. Reznak has more.
Reznak cannot be trusted. He smells too sweet and feels too foul. Someone needs to free our
hostages. Unless we get our people back, the Yunkaii will use them against us.
Skahaz snorted through the noseholes of his mask. Easy to speak of rescue. Harder to do. Let
the slavers threaten.
And if they do more than threaten?
Would you miss them so much, old man? A eunuch, a savage, and a sell sword?
Hero, Jhogo, and Daario. Jhogo is the queens bloodrider, blood of her blood. They came out of
the Red Waste together. Hero is Grey Worms second-in-command. And Daario  She loves Daario. He
had seen it in her eyes when she looked at him, heard it in her voice when she spoke of him.  Daario is
vain and rash, but he is dear to Her Grace. He must be rescued, before his Stormcrows decide to take
matters into their own hands. It can be done. I once brought the queens father safely out of
Duskendale, where he was being held captive by a rebel lord, but 
 you could never hope to pass unnoticed amongst the Yunkaii. Every man of them knows
your face by now.
I could hide my face, like you, thought Selmy, but he knew the Shavepate was right. Duskendale
had been a lifetime ago. He was too old for such heroics. Then we must needs find some other way.
Some other rescuer. Someone known to the Yunkishmen, whose presence in their camp might go
unnoticed 
Daario calls you Ser Grandfather, Skahaz reminded him. I will not say what he calls me. If you
and I were the hostages, would he risk his skin for us?
Not likely, he thought, but he said, He might.
Daario might piss on us if we were burning. Elsewise do not look to him for help. Let the
Stormcrows choose another captain, one who knows his place. If the queen does not return, the world
will be one sellsword short. Who will grieve?
And when she does return?
She will weep and tear her hair and curse the Yunkaii. Not us. No blood on our hands. You can
comfort her. Tell her some tale of the old days, she likes those. Poor Daario, her brave captain  she will
never forget him, no  but better for all of us if he is dead, yes? Better for Daenerys too.
Better for Daenerys, and for Westeros. Daenerys Targaryen loved her captain, but that was the
girl in her, not the queen. Prince Rhaegar loved his Lady Lyanna, and thousands died for it. Daemon
Blackfyre loved the first Daenerys, and rose in rebellion when denied her. Bittersteel and Bloodraven both
loved Shiera Seastar, and the Seven Kingdoms bled. The Prince of Dragonflies loved Jenny of Oldstones so

much he cast aside a crown, and Westeros paid the bride price in corpses. All three of the sons of the
fifth Aegon had wed for love, in defiance of their fathers wishes. And because that unlikely monarch
had himself followed his heart when he chose his queen, he allowed his sons to have their way, making
bitter enemies where he might have had fast friends. Treason and turmoil followed, as night follows day,
ending at Summerhall in sorcery, fire, and grief.
Her love for Daario is poison. A slower poison than the locusts, but in the end as deadly. There is
still Jhogo, Ser Barristan said. Him, and Hero. Both precious to Her Grace.
We have hostages as well, Skahaz Shavepate reminded him. If the slav ers kill one of ours, we
kill one of theirs.
For a moment Ser Barristan did not know whom he meant. Then it came to him. The queens
cupbearers?
Hostages, insisted Skahaz mo Kandaq. Grazdar and Qezza are the blood of the Green Grace.
Mezzara is of Merreq, Kezmya is Pahl, Azzak Ghazeen. Bhakaz is Loraq, Hizdahrs own kin. All are sons
and daughters of the pyramids. Zhak, Quazzar, Uhlez, Hazkar, Dhazak, Yherizan, all children of Great
Masters.
Innocent girls and sweet-faced boys. Ser Barristan had come to know them all during the time
they served the queen, Grazhar with his dreams of glory, shy Mezzara, lazy Miklaz, vain, pretty Kezmya,
Qezza with her big soft eyes and angels voice, Dhazzar the dancer, and the rest. Children.
Children of the Harpy. Only blood can pay for blood.
So said the Yunkishman who brought us Groleos head.
He was not wrong.
I will not permit it.
What use are hostages if they may not be touched?
Mayhaps we might offer three of the children for Daario, Hero, and Jhogo, Ser Barristan
allowed. Her Grace
is not here. It is for you and me to do what must be done. You know that I am right.
Prince Rhaegar had two children, Ser Barristan told him. Rhaenys was a little girl, Aegon a
babe in arms. When Tywin Lannister took Kings Landing, his men killed both of them. He served the
bloody bodies up in crimson cloaks, a gift for the new king. And what did Robert say when he saw
them? Did he smile? Barristan Selmy had been badly wounded on the Trident, so he had been spared
the sight of Lord Tywins gift, but oft he wondered. If I had seen him smile over the red ruins of Rhaegars
children, no army on this earth could have stopped me from killing him. I will not suffer the murder of
children. Accept that, or Ill have no part of this.

Skahaz chuckled. You are a stubborn old man. Your sweet-faced boys will only grow up to be
Sons of the Harpy. Kill them now or kill them then.
You kill men for the wrongs they have done, not the wrongs that they may do someday.
The Shavepate took an axe down off the wall, inspected it, and grunted. So be it. No harm to
Hizdahr or our hostages. Will that content you, Ser Grandfather?
Nothing about this will content me. It will serve. The hour of the wolf. Remember.
I am not like to forget, ser. Though the bats brass mouth did not move, Ser Barristan could
sense the grin beneath the mask. Long has Kandaq waited for this night.
That is what I fear. If King Hizdahr was innocent, what they did this day would be treason. But
how could he be innocent? Selmy had heard him urging Daenerys to taste the poisoned locusts,
shouting at his men to slay the dragon. If we do not act, Hizdahr will kill the dragons and open the gates
to the queens enemies. We have no choice in this. Yet no matter how he turned and twisted this, the old
knight could find no honor in it.
The rest of that long day raced past as swiftly as a snail.
Elsewhere, he knew, King Hizdahr was consulting with Reznak mo Reznak, Marghaz zo Loraq,
Galazza Galare, and his other Meereenese advisors, deciding how best to respond to Yunkais demands
 but Barristan Selmy was no longer a part of such councils. Nor did he have a king to guard. Instead he
made the rounds of the pyramid from top to bottom, to ascertain that the sentries were all at their
posts. That took most of the morning. He spent that afternoon with his orphans, even took up sword
and shield himself to provide a sterner test for a few of the older lads.
Some of them had been training for the fighting pits when Daenerys Targaryen took Meereen
and freed them from their chains. Those had had a good acquaintance with sword and spear and
battle-axe even before Ser Barristan got hold of them. A few might well be ready. The boy from the
Basilisk Isles, for a start. Tumco Lho. Black as maesters ink he was, but fast and strong, the best natural
swordsman Selmy had seen since Jaime Lannister. Larraq as well. The Lash. Ser Barristan did not
approve of his fighting style, but there was no doubting his skills. Larraq had years of work ahead of him
before he mastered proper knightly weapons, sword and lance and mace, but he was deadly with his
whip and trident. The old knight had warned him that the whip would be useless against an armored foe
 until he saw how Larraq used it, snapping it around the legs of his opponents to yank them off their
feet. No knight as yet, but a fierce fighter.
Larraq and Tumco were his best. After them the Lhazarene, the one the other boys called Red
Lamb, though as yet that one was all ferocity and no technique. Perhaps the brothers too, three
lowborn Ghiscari enslaved to pay their fathers debts.
That made six. Six out of twenty-seven. Selmy might have hoped for more, but six was a good
beginning. The other boys were younger for the most part, and more familiar with looms and plows and

chamber pots than swords and shields, but they worked hard and learned quickly. A few years as
squires, and he might have six more knights to give his queen. As for those who would never be ready,
well, not every boy was meant to be a knight. The realm needs candlemakers and innkeeps and armorers
as well. That was as true in Meereen as it was in Westeros.
As he watched them at their drills, Ser Barristan pondered raising Tumco and Larraq to
knighthood then and there, and mayhaps the Red Lamb too. It required a knight to make a knight, and if
something should go awry tonight, dawn might find him dead or in a dungeon. Who would dub his
squires then? On the other hand, a young knights repute derived at least in part from the honor of the
man who conferred knighthood on him. It would do his lads no good at all if it was known that they
were given their spurs by a traitor, and might well land them in the dungeon next to him. They deserve
better, Ser Barristan decided. Better a long life as a squire than a short one as a soiled knight.
As the afternoon melted into evening, he bid his charges to lay down their swords and shields
and gather round. He spoke to them about what it meant to be a knight. It is chivalry that makes a true
knight, not a sword, he said. Without honor, a knight is no more than a common killer. It is better to
die with honor than to live without it. The boys looked at him strangely, he thought, but one day they
would understand.
Afterward, back at the apex of the pyramid, Ser Barristan found Missandei amongst piles of
scrolls and books, reading. Stay here tonight, child, he told her. Whatever happens, whatever you see
or hear, do not leave the queens chambers.
This one hears, the girl said. If she may ask
Best not. Ser Barristan stepped out alone onto the terrace gardens. I am not made for this, he
reflected as he looked out over the sprawling city. The pyramids were waking, one by one, lanterns and
torches flickering to life as shadows gathered in the streets below. Plots, ploys, whispers, lies, secrets
within secrets, and somehow I have become part of them.
Perhaps by now he should have grown used to such things. The Red Keep had its secrets too.
Even Rhaegar. The Prince of Dragonstone had never trusted him as he had trusted Arthur Dayne.
Harrenhal was proof of that. The year of the false spring.
The memory was still bitter. Old Lord Whent had announced the tourney shortly after a visit
from his brother, Ser Oswell Whent of the Kingsguard. With Varys whispering in his ear, King Aerys
became convinced that his son was conspiring to depose him, that Whents tourney was but a ploy to
give Rhaegar a pretext for meeting with as many great lords as could be brought together. Aerys had not
set foot outside the Red Keep since Duskendale, yet suddenly he announced that he would accompany
Prince Rhaegar to Har renhal, and everything had gone awry from there.
If I had been a better knight  if I had unhorsed the prince in that last tilt, as I unhorsed so many
others, it would have been for me to choose the queen of love and beauty 

Rhaegar had chosen Lyanna Stark of Winterfell. Barristan Selmy would have made a different
choice. Not the queen, who was not present. Nor Elia of Dorne, though she was good and gentle; had
she been chosen, much war and woe might have been avoided. His choice would have been a young
maiden not long at court, one of Elias companions  though compared to Ashara Dayne, the Dornish
princess was a kitchen drab.
Even after all these years, Ser Barristan could still recall Asharas smile, the sound of her
laughter. He had only to close his eyes to see her, with her long dark hair tumbling about her shoulders
and those haunting purple eyes. Daenerys has the same eyes. Sometimes when the queen looked at
him, he felt as if he were looking at Asharas daughter 
But Asharas daughter had been stillborn, and his fair lady had thrown herself from a tower soon
after, mad with grief for the child she had lost, and perhaps for the man who had dishonored her at
Harrenhal as well. She died never knowing that Ser Barristan had loved her. How could she? He was a
knight of the Kingsguard, sworn to celibacy. No good could have come from telling her his feelings. No
good came from silence either. If I had unhorsed Rhaegar and crowned Ashara queen of love and beauty,
might she have looked to me instead of Stark?
He would never know. But of all his failures, none haunted Barristan Selmy so much as that.
The sky was overcast, the air hot, muggy, oppressive, yet there was something in it that made
his spine tingle. Rain, he thought. A storm is coming. If not tonight, upon the morrow. Ser Barristan
wondered if he would live to see it. If Hizdahr has his own Spider, I am as good as dead. Should it come
to that, he meant to die as he had lived, with his long-sword in his hand.
When the last light had faded in the west, behind the sails of the prowling ships on Slavers Bay,
Ser Barristan went back inside, summoned a pair of serving men, and told them to heat some water for
a bath. Sparring with his squires in the afternoon heat had left him feeling soiled and sweaty.
The water, when it came, was only lukewarm, but Selmy lingered in the bath until it had grown
cold and scrubbed his skin till it was raw. Clean as he had ever been, he rose, dried himself, and clad
himself in whites. Stockings, smallclothes, silken tunic, padded jerkin, all fresh-washed and bleached.
Over that he donned the armor that the queen had given him as a token of her esteem. The mail was
gilded, finely wrought, the links as supple as good leather, the plate enameled, hard as ice and bright as
new-fallen snow. His dagger went on one hip, his long-sword on the other, hung from a white leather
belt with golden buckles. Last of all he took down his long white cloak and fastened it about his
shoulders.
The helm he left upon its hook. The narrow eye slit limited his vision, and he needed to be able
to see for what was to come. The halls of the pyramid were dark at night, and foes could come at you
from either side. Besides, though the ornate dragons wings that adorned the helm were splendid to
look upon, they could too easily catch a sword or axe. He would leave them for his next tourney if the
Seven should grant him one.

Armed and armored, the old knight waited, sitting in the gloom of his small chamber adjoining
the queens apartments. The faces of all the kings that he had served and failed floated before him in
the darkness, and the faces of the brothers who had served beside him in the Kingsguard as well. He
wondered how many of them would have done what he was about to do. Some, surely. But not all.
Some would not have hesitated to strike down the Shavepate as a traitor. Outside the pyramid, it began
to rain. Ser Barristan sat along in the dark, listening. It sounds like tears, he thought. It sounds like dead
kings, weeping.
Then it was time to go.
The Great Pyramid of Meereen had been built as an echo to the Great Pyramid of Ghis whose
collossal ruins Lomas Longstrider had once visited. Like its ancient predecessor, whose red marble halls
were now the haunt of bats and spiders, the Meereenese pyramid boasted three-and-thirty levels, that
number being somehow sacred to the gods of Ghis. Ser Barristan began the long descent alone, his
white cloak rippling behind him as he started down. He took the servants steps, not the grand stairways
of veined marble, but the narrower, steeper, straighter stairs hidden within the thick brick walls.
Twelve levels down he found the Shavepate waiting, his coarse features still hidden by the mask
he had worn that morning, the blood bat. Six Brazen Beasts were with him. All were masked as insects,
identical to one another.
Locusts, Selmy realized. Groleo, he said. Groleo, one of the locusts replied. I have more
locusts if you need them, said Skahaz. Six should serve. What of the men on the doors?
Mine. You will have no trouble.
Ser Barristan clasped the Shavepate by the arm. Shed no blood unless you must. Come the
morrow we will convene a council and tell the city what weve done and why.
As you say. Good fortune to you, old man.
They went their separate ways. The Brazen Beasts fell in behind Ser Barristan as he continued
his descent.
The kings apartments were buried in the very heart of the pyramid, on the sixteenth and
seventeenth levels. When Selmy reached those floors, he found the doors to the interior of the pyramid
chained shut, with a pair of Brazen Beasts posted as guards. Beneath the hoods of their patchwork
cloaks, one was a rat, the other a bull.
Groleo, Ser Barristan said. Groleo, the bull returned. Third hall to the right. The rat
unlocked the chain. Ser Barristan and his escort stepped through into a narrow, torchlit servants
corridor of red and black brick. Their footsteps echoed on the floors as they strode past two halls and
took the third one to the right.

Outside the carved hardwood doors to the kings chambers stood Steel-skin, a younger pit
fighter, not yet regarded as of the first rank. His cheeks and brow were scarred with intricate tattoos in
green and black, ancient Valyrian sorcerers signs that supposedly made his flesh and skin as hard as
steel. Similar markings covered his chest and arms, though whether they would actually stop a sword or
axe remained to be seen.
Even without them, Steelskin looked formidablea lean and wiry youth who overtopped Ser
Barristan by half a foot. Who goes there? he called out, swinging his longaxe sideways to bar their
way. When he saw Ser Barristan, with the brass locusts behind him, he lowered it again. Old Ser.
If it please the king, I must needs have words with him.
The hour is late.
The hour is late, but the need is urgent.
I can ask. Steelskin slammed the butt of his longaxe against the door to the kings apartments.
A slidehole opened. A childs eye appeared. A childs voice called through the door. Steelskin replied. Ser
Barristan heard the sound of a heavy bar being drawn back. The door swung open.
Only you, said Steelskin. The beasts wait here.
As you wish. Ser Barristan nodded to the locusts. One returned his nod. Alone, Selmy slipped
through the door.
Dark and windowless, surrounded on all sides by brick walls eight feet thick, the chambers that
the king had made his own were large and luxurious within. Great beams of black oak supported the
high ceilings. The floors were covered with silk carpets out of Qarth. On the walls were priceless
tapestries, ancient and much faded, depicting the glory of the Old Empire of Ghis. The largest of them
showed the last survivors of a defeated Valyrian army passing beneath the yoke and being chained. The
archway leading to the royal bedchamber was guarded by a pair of sandalwood lovers, shaped and
smoothed and oiled. Ser Barristan found them distasteful, though no doubt they were meant to be
arousing. The sooner we are gone from this place, the better.
An iron brazier gave the only light. Beside it stood two of the queens cupbearers, Draqaz and
Qezza. Miklaz has gone to wake the king, said Qezza. May we bring you wine, ser?
No. I thank you.
You may sit, said Draqaz, indicating a bench. I prefer to stand. He could hear voices drifting
through the archway from the bedchamber. One of them was the kings.
It was still a good few moments before King Hizdahr zo Loraq, Fourteenth of That Noble Name,
emerged yawning, knotting the sash that closed his robe. The robe was green satin, richly worked with
pearls and silver thread. Under it the king was quite naked. That was good. Naked men felt vulnerable
and were less inclined to acts of suicidal heroism.

The woman Ser Barristan glimpsed peering through the archway from behind a gauzy curtain
was naked as well, her breasts and hips only partially concealed by the blowing silk.
Ser Barristan. Hizdahr yawned again. What hour is it? Is there news of my sweet queen?
None, Your Grace.
Hizdahr sighed.  Your Magnificence, please. Though at his hour, Your Sleepiness would be
more apt. The king crossed to the sideboard to pour himself a cup of wine, but only a trickle remained
in the bottom of the flagon. A flicker of annoyance crossed his face. Miklaz, wine. At once.
Yes, Your Worship.
Take Draqaz with you. One flagon of Arbor gold, and one of that sweet red. None of our yellow
piss, thank you. And the next time I find my flagon dry, I may have to take a switch to those pretty pink
cheeks of yours. The boy went running off, and the king turned back to Selmy. I dreamed you found
Daenerys.
Dreams can lie, Your Grace.
 Your Radiance would serve. What brings you to me at this hour, ser? Some trouble in the
city?
The city is tranquil.
Is it so? Hizdahr looked confused. Why have you come?
To ask a question. Magnificence, are you the Harpy?
Hizdahrs wine cup slipped through his fingers, bounced off the carpet, rolled. You come to my
bedchamber in the black of night and ask me that? Are you mad? It was only then that the king seemed
to notice that Ser Barristan was wearing his plate and mail. What  why  how dare you 
Was the poison your work, Magnificence?
King Hizdahr backed away a step. The locusts? That  that was the Dornishman. Quentyn, the
so-called prince. Ask Reznak if you doubt me.
Have you proof of that? Has Reznak?
No, else I would have had them seized. Perhaps I should do so in any case. Marghaz will wring a
confession out of them, I do not doubt. Theyre all poisoners, these Dornish. Reznak says they worship
snakes.
They eat snakes, said Ser Barristan. It was your pit, your box, your seats. Sweet wine and soft
cushions, figs and melons and honeyed locusts. You provided all. You urged Her Grace to try the locusts
but never tasted one yourself.

I  hot spices do not agree with me. She was my wife. My queen. Why would I want to poison
her?
Was, he says. He believes her dead. Only you can answer that, Magnificence. It might be that
you wished to put another woman in her place. Ser Barristan nodded at the girl peering timidly from
the bed-chamber. That one, perhaps?
The king looked around wildly. Her? Shes nothing. A bedslave. He raised his hands. I
misspoke. Not a slave. A free woman. Trained in pleasure. Even a king has needs, she  she is none of
your concern, ser. I would never harm Daenerys. Never.
You urged the queen to try the locusts. I heard you.
I thought she might enjoy them. Hizdahr retreated another step. Hot and sweet at once.
Hot and sweet and poisoned. With mine own ears I heard you commanding the men in the pit
to kill Drogon. Shouting at them.
Hizdahr licked his lips. The beast devoured Barsenas flesh. Dragons prey on men. It was killing,
burning 
 burning men who meant harm to your queen. Harpys Sons, as like as not. Your friends.
Not my friends.
You say that, yet when you told them to stop killing they obeyed. Why would they do that if
you were not one of them?
Hizdahr shook his head. This time he did not answer. Tell me true, Ser Barristan said, did you
ever love her, even a little? Or was it just the crown you lusted for?
Lust? You dare speak to me of lust? The kings mouth twisted in anger. I lusted for the crown,
aye  but not half so much as she lusted for her sellsword. Perhaps it was her precious captain who
tried to poison her, for putting him aside. And if I had eaten of his locusts too, well, so much the better.
Daario is a killer but not a poisoner. Ser Barristan moved closer to the king. Are you the
Harpy? This time he put his hand on the hilt of his longsword. Tell me true, and I promise you shall
have a swift, clean death.
You presume too much, ser, said Hizdahr. I am done with these questions, and with you. You
are dismissed from my service. Leave Meereen at once and I will let you live.
If you are not the Harpy, give me his name. Ser Barristan pulled his sword from the scabbard.
Its sharp edge caught the light from the brazier, became a line of orange fire.
Hizdahr broke. Khrazz! he shrieked, stumbling backwards toward his bedchamber. Khrazz!
Khrazz!

Ser Barristan heard a door open, somewhere to his left. He turned in time to see Khrazz emerge
from behind a tapestry. He moved slowly, still groggy from sleep, but his weapon of choice was in his
hand: a Dothraki arakh, long and curved. A slashers sword, made to deliver deep, slicing cuts from
horseback. A murderous blade against half-naked foes, in the pit or on the battlefield. But here at close
quarters, the arakhs length would tell against it, and Barristan Selmy was clad in plate and mail.
I am here for Hizdahr, the knight said. Throw down your steel and stand aside, and no harm
need come to you.
Khrazz laughed. Old man. I will eat your heart. The two men were of a height, but Khrazz was
two stone heavier and forty years younger, with pale skin, dead eyes, and a crest of bristly red-black hair
that ran from his brow to the base of his neck.
Then come, said Barristan the Bold. Khrazz came.
For the first time all day, Selmy felt certain. This is what I was made for, he thought. The dance,
the sweet steel song, a sword in my hand and a foe before me.
The pit fighter was fast, blazing fast, as quick as any man Ser Barristan had ever fought. In those
big hands, the arakh became a whistling blur, a steel storm that seemed to come at the old knight from
three directions at once. Most of the cuts were aimed at his head. Khrazz was no fool. Without a helm,
Selmy was most vulnerable above the neck.
He blocked the blows calmly, his longsword meeting each slash and turning it aside. The blades
rang and rang again. Ser Barristan retreated. On the edge of his vision, he saw the cupbearers watching
with eyes as big and white as chicken eggs. Khrazz cursed and turned a high cut into a low one, slipping
past the old knights blade for once, only to have his blow scrape uselessly off a white steel greave.
Selmys answering slash found the pit fighters left shoulder, parting the fine linen to bite the flesh
beneath. His yellow tunic began to turn pink, then red.
Only cowards dress in iron, Khrazz declared, circling. No one wore armor in the fighting pits. It
was blood the crowds came for: death, dismemberment, and shrieks of agony, the music of the scarlet
sands.
Ser Barristan turned with him. This coward is about to kill you, ser. The man was no knight,
but his courage had earned him that much courtesy. Khrazz did not know how to fight a man in armor.
Ser Barristan could see it in his eyes: doubt, confusion, the beginnings of fear. The pit fighter came on
again, screaming this time, as if sound could slay his foe where steel could not. The arakh slashed low,
high, low again.
Selmy blocked the cuts at his head and let his armor stop the rest, whilst his own blade opened
the pit fighters cheek from ear to mouth, then traced a raw red gash across his chest. Blood welled from
Khrazzs wounds. That only seemed to make him wilder. He seized the brazier with his off hand and
flipped it, scattering embers and hot coals at Selmys feet. Ser Barristan leapt over them. Khrazz slashed
at his arm and caught him, but the arakh could only chip the hard enamel before it met the steel below.

In the pit that would have taken your arm off, old man.
We are not in the pit.
Take off that armor!
It is not too late to throw down your steel. Yield.
Die, spat Khrazz  but as he lifted his arakh, its tip grazed one of the wall hangings and hung.
That was all the chance Ser Barristan required. He slashed open the pit fighters belly, parried the arakh
as it wrenched free, then finished Khrazz with a quick thrust to the heart as the pit fighters entrails
came sliding out like a nest of greasy eels.
Blood and viscera stained the kings silk carpets. Selmy took a step back. The longsword in his
hand was red for half its length. Here and there the carpets had begun to smolder where some of the
scattered coals had fallen. He could hear poor Qezza sobbing. Dont be afraid, the old knight said. I
mean you no harm, child. I want only the king.
He wiped his sword clean on a curtain and stalked into the bedchamber, where he found
Hizdahr zo Loraq, Fourteenth of His Noble Name, hiding behind a tapestry and whimpering. Spare me,
he begged. I do not want to die.
Few do. Yet all men die, regardless. Ser Barristan sheathed his sword and pulled Hizdahr to his
feet. Come. I will escort you to a cell. By now, the Brazen Beasts should have disarmed Steelskin. You
will be kept a prisoner until the queen returns. If nothing can be proved against you, you will not come
to harm. You have my word as a knight. He took the kings arm and led him from the bedchamber,
feeling strangely light-headed, almost drunk. I was a Kingsguard. What am I now?
Miklaz and Draqaz had returned with Hizdahrs wine. They stood in the open door, cradling the
flagons against their chests and staring wide-eyed at the corpse of Khrazz. Qezza was still crying, but
Jezhene had appeared to comfort her. She hugged the younger girl, stroking her hair. Some of the other
cupbearers stood behind them, watching. Your Worship, Miklaz said, the noble Reznak mo Reznak
says to t-tell you, come at once.
The boy addressed the king as if Ser Barristan were not there, as if there were no dead man
sprawled upon the carpet, his lifes blood slowly staining the silk red. Skahaz was supposed to take
Reznak into custody until we could be certain of his loyalty. Had something gone awry? Come where?
Ser Barristan asked the boy. Where does the seneschal want His Grace to go?
Outside. Miklaz seemed to see him for the first time. Outside, ser. To the t-terrace. To see.
To see what?
D-d-dragons. The dragons have been loosed, ser. Seven save us all, the old knight thought.

THE DRAGONTAMER
The night crept past on slow black feet. The hour of the bat gave way to the hour of the eel, the
hour of the eel to the hour of ghosts. The prince lay abed, staring at his ceiling, dreaming without
sleeping, remembering, imagining, twisting beneath his linen coverlet, his mind feverish with thoughts
of fire and blood.
Finally, despairing of rest, Quentyn Martell made his way to his solar, where he poured himself a
cup of wine and drank it in the dark. The taste was sweet solace on his tongue, so he lit a candle and
poured himself another. Wine will help me sleep, he told himself, but he knew that was a lie.
He stared at the candle for a long time, then put down his cup and held his palm above the
flame. It took every bit of will he had to lower it until the fire touched his flesh, and when it did he
snatched his hand back with a cry of pain.
Quentyn, are you mad?
No, just scared. I do not want to burn. Gerris?
I heard you moving about.
I could not sleep.
Are burns a cure for that? Some warm milk and a lullaby might serve you well. Or better still, I
could take you to the Temple of the Graces and find a girl for you.
A whore, you mean.
They call them Graces. They come in different colors. The red ones are the only ones who
fuck. Gerris seated himself across the table. The septas back home should take up the custom, if you
ask me. Have you noticed that old septas always look like prunes? Thats what a life of chastity will do to
you.
Quentyn glanced out at the terrace, where nights shadows lay thick amongst the trees. He
could hear the soft sound of falling water. Is that rain? Your whores will be gone.
Not all of them. There are little snuggeries in the pleasure gardens, and they wait there every
night until a man chooses them. Those who are not chosen must remain until the sun comes up, feeling
lonely and neglected. We could console them.
They could console me, is what you mean.
That too.
That is not the sort of consolation I require.

I disagree. Daenerys Targaryen is not the only woman in the world. Do you want to die a
man-maid?
Quentyn did not want to die at all. I want to go back to Yronwood and kiss both of your sisters,
marry Gwyneth Yronwood, watch her flower into beauty, have a child by her. I want to ride in tourneys,
hawk and hunt, visit with my mother in Norvos, read some of those books my father sends me. I want
Cletus and Will and Maester Kedry to be alive again. Do you think Daenerys would be pleased to hear
that I had bedded some whore?
She might be. Men may be fond of maidens, but women like a man who knows what hes
about in the bedchamber. Its another sort of sword-play. Takes training to be good at it.
The gibe stung. Quentyn had never felt so much a boy as when hed stood before Daenerys
Targaryen, pleading for her hand. The thought of bedding her terrified him almost as much as her
dragons had. What if he could not please her? Daenerys has a paramour, he said defensively. My
father did not send me here to amuse the queen in the bedchamber. You know why we have come.
You cannot marry her. She has a husband.
She does not love Hizdahr zo Loraq.
What has love to do with marriage? A prince should know better. Your father married for love,
its said. How much joy has he had of that?
Little and less. Doran Martell and his Norvoshi wife had spent half their marriage apart and the
other half arguing. It was the only rash thing his father had ever done, to hear some tell it, the only time
he had followed his heart instead of his head, and he had lived to rue it. Not all risks lead to ruin, he
insisted. This is my duty. My destiny. You are supposed to be my friend, Gerris. Why must you mock my
hopes? I have doubts enough without your throwing oil on the fire of my fear. This will be my grand
adventure.
Men die on grand adventures.
He was not wrong. That was in the stories too. The hero sets out with his friends and
companions, faces dangers, comes home triumphant. Only some of his companions dont return at all.
The hero never dies, though. I must be the hero. All I need is courage. Would you have Dorne remember
me as a failure?
Dorne is not like to remember any of us for long.
Quentyn sucked at the burned spot on his palm. Dorne remembers Aegon and his sisters.
Dragons are not so easily forgotten. They will remember Daenerys as well.
Not if shes died.

She lives. She must. She is lost, but I can find her. And when I do, she will look at me the way
she looks at her sellsword. Once I have proven myself worthy of her.
From dragonback?
I have been riding horses since I was six years old.
And youve been thrown a time or three.
That never stopped me from getting back into the saddle.
Youve never been thrown off a thousand feet above the ground, Gerris pointed out. And
horses seldom turn their riders into charred bones and ashes.
I know the dangers. Ill hear no more of this. You have my leave to go. Find a ship and run
home, Gerris. The prince rose, blew the candle out, and crept back to his bed and its sweat-soaked
linen sheets. I should have kissed one of the Drinkwater twins, or maybe both of them. I should have
kissed them whilst I could. I should have gone to Norvos to see my mother and the place that gave her
birth, so she would know that I had not forgotten her. He could hear the rain falling outside, drumming
against the bricks.
By the time the hour of the wolf crept upon them, the rain was falling steadily, slashing down in
a hard, cold torrent that would soon turn the brick streets of Meereen into rivers. The three Dornishmen
broke their fast in the predawn chilla simple meal of fruit and bread and cheese, washed down with
goat milk. When Gerris made to pour himself a cup of wine, Quentyn stopped him. No wine. There will
be time enough for drink afterward.
One hopes, said Gerris.
The big man looked out toward the terrace. I knew it would rain, he said in a gloomy tone.
My bones were aching last night. They always ache before it rains. The dragons wont like this. Fire and
water dont mix, and thats a fact. You get a good cookfire lit, blazing away nice, then it starts to piss
down rain and next thing your wood is sodden and your flames are dead.
Gerris chuckled. Dragons are not made of wood, Arch.
Some are. That old King Aegon, the randy one, he built wooden dragons to conquer us. That
ended bad, though.
So may this, the prince thought. The follies and failures of Aegon the Unworthy did not concern
him, but he was full of doubts and misgivings. The labored banter of his friends was only making his
head ache. They do not understand. They may be Dornish, but I am Dorne. Years from now, when I am
dead, this will be the song they sing of me. He rose abruptly. Its time.
His friends got to their feet. Ser Archibald drained the last of his goats milk and wiped the milk
mustache from his upper lip with the back of a big hand. Ill get our mummers garb.

He returned with the bundle that they had collected from the Tattered Prince at their second
meeting. Within were three long hooded cloaks made from myriad small squares of cloth sewn
together, three cudgels, three shortswords, three masks of polished brass. A bull, a lion, and an ape.
Everything required to be a Brazen Beast. They may ask for a word, the Tattered Prince had
warned them when he handed over the bundle. Its dog.
You are certain of that? Gerris had asked him. Certain enough to wager a life upon it.
The prince did not mistake his meaning. My life.
That would be the one.
How did you learn their word?
We chanced upon some Brazen Beasts and Meris asked them prettily. But a prince should
know better than to pose such questions, Dornish. In Pentos, we have a saying. Never ask the baker
what went into the pie. Just eat.
Just eat. There was wisdom in that, Quentyn supposed. Ill be the bull, Arch announced.
Quentyn handed him the bull mask. The lion for me.
Which makes a monkey out of me. Gerris pressed the ape mask to his face. How do they
breathe in these things?
Just put it on. The prince was in no mood for japes.
The bundle contained a whip as wella nasty piece of old leather with a handle of brass and
bone, stout enough to peel the hide off an ox. Whats that for? Arch asked.
Daenerys used a whip to cow the black beast. Quentyn coiled the whip and hung it from his
belt. Arch, bring your hammer as well. We may have need of it.
It was no easy thing to enter the Great Pyramid of Meereen by night. The doors were closed and
barred each day at sunset and remained closed until first light. Guards were posted at every entrance,
and more guards patrolled the lowest terrace, where they could look down on the street. Formerly
those guards had been Unsullied. Now they were Brazen Beasts. And that would make all the difference,
Quentyn hoped.
The watch changed when the sun came up, but dawn was still half an hour off as the three
Dornishmen made their way down the servants steps. The walls around them were made of bricks of
half a hundred colors, but the shadows turned them all to grey until touched by the light of the torch
that Gerris carried. They encountered no one on the long descent. The only sound was the scuff of their
boots on the worn bricks beneath their feet.

The pyramids main gates fronted on Meereens central plaza, but the Dornishmen made their
way to a side entrance opening on an alley. These were the gates that slaves had used in former days as
they went about their masters business, where smallfolk and tradesmen came and went and made their
deliveries.
The doors were solid bronze, closed with a heavy iron bar. Before them stood two Brazen
Beasts, armed with cudgels, spears, and short swords. Torchlight glimmered off the polished brass of
their masksa rat and a fox. Quentyn gestured for the big man to stay back in the shadows. He and
Gerris strode forward together.
You come early, the fox said.
Quentyn shrugged. We can leave again, if you like. Youre welcome to stand our watch. He
sounded not at all Ghiscari, he knew; but half the Brazen Beasts were freed slaves, with all manner of
native tongues, so his accent went unremarked.
Bugger that, the rat remarked. Give us the days word, said the fox. Dog, said the
Dornishman.
The two Brazen Beasts exchanged a look. For three long heartbeats Quentyn was afraid that
something had gone amiss, that somehow Pretty Meris and the Tattered Prince had gotten the word
wrong. Then the fox grunted. Dog, then, he said. The door is yours. As they moved off, the prince
began to breathe again.
They did not have long. The real relief would doubtless turn up shortly. Arch, he called, and
the big man appeared, the torchlight shining off his bulls mask. The bar. Hurry.
The iron bar was thick and heavy, but well oiled. Ser Archibald had no trouble lifting it. As he
was standing it on end, Quentyn pulled the doors open and Gerris stepped through, waving the torch.
Bring it in now. Be quick about it.
The butchers wagon was outside, waiting in the alley. The driver gave the mule a lick and
rumbled through, iron-rimmed wheels clacking loudly over bricks. The quartered carcass of an ox filled
the wagon bed, along with two dead sheep. Half a dozen men entered afoot. Five wore the cloaks and
masks of Brazen Beasts, but Pretty Meris had not troubled to disguise herself. Where is your lord? he
asked Meris.
I have no lord, she answered. If you mean your fellow prince, he is near, with fifty men. Bring
your dragon out, and he will see you safe away, as promised. Caggo commands here.
Ser Archibald was giving the butchers wagon the sour eye. Will that cart be big enough to hold
a dragon? he asked.

Should. Its held two oxen. The Corpsekiller was garbed as a Brazen Beast, his seamed, scarred
face hidden behind a cobra mask, but the familiar black arakh slung at his hip gave him away. We were
told these beasts are smaller than the queens monster.
The pit has slowed their growth. Quentyns readings had suggested that the same thing had
occurred in the Seven Kingdoms. None of the dragons bred and raised in the Dragonpit of Kings Landing
had ever approached the size of Vhagar or Meraxes, much less that of the Black Dread, King Aegons
monster. Have you brought sufficient chains?
How many dragons do you have? said Pretty Meris. We have chains enough for ten,
concealed beneath the meat.
Very good. Quentyn felt light-headed. None of this seemed quite real. One moment it felt like
a game, the next like some nightmare, like a bad dream where he found himself opening a dark door,
knowing that horror and death waited on the other side, yet somehow powerless to stop himself. His
palms were slick with sweat. He wiped them on his legs and said, There will be more guards outside the
pit.
We know, said Gerris. We need to be ready for them.
We are, said Arch.
There was a cramp in Quentyns belly. He felt a sudden need to move his bowels, but knew he
dare not beg off now. This way, then. He had seldom felt more like a boy. Yet they followed; Gerris
and the big man, Meris and Caggo and the other Windblown. Two of the sellswords had produced
crossbows from some hiding place within the wagon.
Beyond the stables, the ground level of the Great Pyramid became a labyrinth, but Quentyn
Martell had been through here with the queen, and he remembered the way. Under three huge brick
arches they went, then down a steep stone ramp into the depths, through the dungeons and torture
chambers and past a pair of deep stone cisterns. Their footsteps echoed hollowly off the walls, the
butchers cart rumbling behind them. The big man snatched a torch down from a wall sconce to lead the
way.
At last a pair of heavy iron doors rose before them, rust-eaten and forbidding, closed with a
length of chain whose every link was as thick around as a mans arm. The size and thickness of those
doors was enough to make Quentyn Martell question the wisdom of this course. Even worse, both doors
were plainly dinted by something inside trying to get out. The thick iron was cracked and splitting in
three places, and the upper corner of the left-hand door looked partly melted.
Four Brazen Beasts stood guarding the door. Three held long spears; the fourth, the serjeant,
was armed with short sword and dagger. His mask was wrought in the shape of a basilisks head. The
other three were masked as insects.
Locusts, Quentyn realized. Dog, he said.

The serjeant stiffened.
That was all it took for Quentyn Martell to realize that something had gone awry. Take them,
he croaked, even as the basilisks hand darted for his shortsword.
He was quick, that serjeant. The big man was quicker. He flung the torch at the nearest locust,
reached back, and unslung his warhammer. The basilisks blade had scarce slipped from its leather
sheath when the hammers spike slammed into his temple, crunching through the thin brass of his mask
and the flesh and bone beneath. The serjeant staggered sideways half a step before his knees folded
under him and he sank down to the floor, his whole body shaking grotesquely.
Quentyn stared transfixed, his belly roiling. His own blade was still in its sheath. He had not so
much as reached for it. His eyes were locked on the serjeant dying before him, jerking. The fallen torch
was on the floor, guttering, making every shadow leap and twist in a monstrous mockery of the dead
mans shaking. The prince never saw the locusts spear coming toward him until Gerris slammed into
him, knocking him aside. The spearpoint grazed the cheek of the lions head he wore. Even then the
blow was so violent it almost tore the mask off. It would have gone right through my throat, the prince
thought, dazed.
Gerris cursed as the locusts closed around him. Quentyn heard the sound of running feet. Then
the sellswords came rushing from the shadows. One of the guards glanced at them just long enough for
Gerris to get inside his spear. He drove the point of his sword under the brass mask and up through the
wearers throat, even as the second locust sprouted a cross-bow bolt from his chest.
The last locust dropped his spear. Yield. I yield.
No. You die. Caggo took the mans head off with one swipe of his arakh, the Valyrian steel
shearing through flesh and bone and gristle as if they were so much suet. Too much noise, he
complained. Any man with ears will have heard.
Dog, Quentyn said. The days word was supposed to be dog. Why wouldnt they let us pass?
We were told 
You were told your scheme was madness, have you forgotten? said Pretty Meris. Do what
you came to do.
The dragons, Prince Quentyn thought. Yes. We came for the dragons. He felt as though he might
be sick. What am I doing here? Father, why? Four men dead in as many heartbeats, and for what? Fire
and blood, he whispered, blood and fire. The blood was pooling at his feet, soaking into the brick
floor. The fire was beyond those doors. The chains  we have no key 
Arch said, I have the key. He swung his warhammer hard and fast. Sparks flew when the
hammmerhead struck the lock. And then again, again, again. On his fifth swing the lock shattered, and
the chains fell away in a rattling clatter so loud Quentyn was certain half the pyramid must have heard

them. Bring the cart. The dragons would be more docile once fed. Let them gorge themselves on
charred mutton.
Archibald Yronwood grasped the iron doors and pulled them apart. Their rusted hinges let out a
pair of screams, for all those who might have slept through the breaking of the lock. A wash of sudden
heat assaulted them, heavy with the odors of ash, brimstone, and burnt meat.
It was black beyond the doors, a sullen stygian darkness that seemed alive and threatening,
hungry. Quentyn could sense that there was something in that darkness, coiled and waiting. Warrior,
grant me courage, he prayed. He did not want to do this, but he saw no other way. Why else would
Daenerys have shown me the dragons? She wants me to prove myself to her. Gerris handed him a torch.
He stepped through the doors.
The green one is Rhaegal, the white Viserion, he reminded himself. Use their names, command
them, speak to them calmly but sternly. Master them, as Daenerys mastered Drogon in the pit. The girl
had been alone, clad in wisps of silk, but fearless. I must not be afraid. She did it, so can I. The main thing
was to show no fear. Animals can smell fear, and dragons  What did he know of dragons? What does
any man know of dragons? They have been gone from the world for more than a century.
The lip of the pit was just ahead. Quentyn edged forward slowly, moving the torch from side to
side. Walls and floor and ceiling drank the light. Scorched, he realized. Bricks burned black, crumbling
into ash. The air grew warmer with every step he took. He began to sweat.
Two eyes rose up before him.
Bronze, they were, brighter than polished shields, glowing with their own heat, burning behind a
veil of smoke rising from the dragons nostrils. The light of Quentyns torch washed over scales of dark
green, the green of moss in the deep woods at dusk, just before the last light fades. Then the dragon
opened its mouth, and light and heat washed over them. Behind a fence of sharp black teeth he
glimpsed the furnace glow, the shimmer of a sleeping fire a hundred times brighter than his torch. The
dragons head was larger than a horses, and the neck stretched on and on, uncoiling like some great
green serpent as the head rose, until those two glowing bronze eyes were staring down at him.
Green, the prince thought, his scales are green. Rhaegal, he said. His voice caught in his throat,
and what came out was a broken croak. Frog, he thought, I am turning into Frog again. The food, he
croaked, remembering. Bring the food.
The big man heard him. Arch wrestled one of the sheep off the wagon by two legs, then spun
and flung it into the pit.
Rhaegal took it in the air. His head snapped round, and from between his jaws a lance of flame
erupted, a swirling storm of orange-and-yellow fire shot through with veins of green. The sheep was
burning before it began to fall. Before the smoking carcass could strike the bricks, the drag-ons teeth
closed round it. A nimbus of flames still flickered about the body. The air stank of burning wool and
brimstone. Dragonstink.

I thought there were two, the big man said.
Viserion. Yes. Where is Viserion? The prince lowered his torch to throw some light into the
gloom below. He could see the green dragon ripping at the smoking carcass of the sheep, his long tail
lashing from side to side as he ate. A thick iron collar was visible about his neck, with three feet of
broken chain dangling from it. Shattered links were strewn across the floor of the pit amongst the
blackened bonestwists of metal, partly melted. Rhaegal was chained to the wall and floor the last time
I was here, the prince recalled, but Viserion hung from the ceiling. Quentyn stepped back, lifted the
torch, craned his head back.
For a moment he saw only the blackened arches of the bricks above, scorched by dragonflame.
A trickle of ash caught his eye, betraying movement. Something pale, half-hidden, stirring. Hes made
himself a cave, the prince realized. A burrow in the brick. The foundations of the Great Pyramid of
Meereen were massive and thick to support the weight of the huge structure overhead; even the
interior walls were three times thicker than any castles curtain walls. But Viserion had dug himself a
hole in them with flame and claw, a hole big enough to sleep in.
And weve just woken him. He could see what looked like some huge white serpent uncoiling
inside the wall, up where it curved to become the ceiling. More ash went drifting downward, and a bit of
crumbling brick fell away. The serpent resolved itself into a neck and tail, and then the dragons long
horned head appeared, his eyes glowing in the dark like golden coals. His wings rattled, stretching.
All of Quentyns plans had fled his head. He could hear Caggo Corpse-killer shouting to his
sellswords. The chains, he is sending for the chains, the Dornish prince thought. The plan had been to
feed the beasts and chain them in their torpor, just as the queen had done. One dragon, or preferably
both.
More meat, Quentyn said. Once the beasts were fed they will become sluggish. He had seen it
work with snakes in Dorne, but here, with these monsters  Bring  bring 
Viserion launched himself from the ceiling, pale leather wings unfolding, spreading wide. The
broken chain dangling from his neck swung wildly. His flame lit the pit, pale gold shot through with red
and orange, and the stale air exploded in a cloud of hot ash and sulfur as the white wings beat and beat
again.
A hand seized Quentyn by the shoulder. The torch spun from his grip to bounce across the floor,
then tumbled into the pit, still burning. He found himself face-to-face with a brass ape. Gerris. Quent,
this will not work. They are too wild, they 
The dragon came down between the Dornishmen and the door with a roar that would have sent
a hundred lions running. His head moved side to side as he inspected the intrudersDornishmen,
Windblown, Caggo. Last and longest the beast stared at Pretty Meris, sniffing. The woman, Quentyn
realized. He knows that she is female. He is looking for Daenerys. He wants his mother and does not
understand why shes not here.

Quentyn wrenched free of Gerriss grip. Viserion, he called. The white one is Viserion. For half
a heartbeat he was afraid hed gotten it wrong. Viserion, he called again, fumbling for the whip
hanging from his belt. She cowed the black one with a whip. I need to do the same.
The dragon knew his name. His head turned, and his gaze lingered on the Dornish prince for
three long heartbeats. Pale fires burned behind the shining black daggers of his teeth. His eyes were
lakes of molten gold, and smoke rose from his nostrils.
Down, Quentyn said. Then he coughed, and coughed again.
The air was thick with smoke and the sulfur stench was choking. Viserion lost interest. The
dragon turned back toward the Windblown and lurched toward the door. Perhaps he could smell the
blood of the dead guards or the meat in the butchers wagon. Or perhaps he had only now seen that the
way was open.
Quentyn heard the sellswords shouting. Caggo was calling for the chains, and Pretty Meris was
screaming at someone to step aside. The dragon moved awkwardly on the ground, like a man scrabbling
on his knees and elbows, but quicker than the Dornish prince would have believed. When the
Windblown were too late to get out of his way, Viserion let loose with another roar. Quentyn heard the
rattle of chains, the deep thrum of a crossbow.
No, he screamed, no, dont, dont, but it was too late. The fool was all that he had time to
think as the quarrel caromed off Viserions neck to vanish in the gloom. A line of fire gleamed in its
wakedragons blood, glowing gold and red.
The crossbowman was fumbling for another quarrel as the dragons teeth closed around his
neck. The man wore the mask of a Brazen Beast, the fearsome likeness of a tiger. As he dropped his
weapon to try and pry apart Viserions jaws, flame gouted from the tigers mouth. The mans eyes burst
with soft popping sounds, and the brass around them began to run. The dragon tore off a hunk of flesh,
most of the sellswords neck, then gulped it down as the burning corpse collapsed to the floor.
The other Windblown were pulling back. This was more than even Pretty Meris had the stomach
for. Viserions horned head moved back and forth between them and his prey, but after a moment he
forgot the sellswords and bent his neck to tear another mouthful from the dead man. A lower leg this
time.
Quentyn let his whip uncoil. Viserion, he called, louder this time. He could do this, he would
do this, his father had sent him to the far ends of the earth for this, he would not fail him. VISERION!
He snapped the whip in the air with a crack that echoed off the blackened walls.
The pale head rose. The great gold eyes narrowed. Wisps of smoke spiraled upward from the
dragons nostrils.
Down, the prince commanded. You must not let him smell your fear. Down, down, down. He
brought the whip around and laid a lash across the dragons face. Viserion hissed.

And then a hot wind buffeted him and he heard the sound of leathern wings and the air was full
of ash and cinders and a monstrous roar went echoing off the scorched and blackened bricks and he
could hear his friends shouting wildly. Gerris was calling out his name, over and over, and the big man
was bellowing, Behind you, behind you, behind you!
Quentyn turned and threw his left arm across his face to shield his eyes from the furnace wind.
Rhaegal, he reminded himself, the green one is Rhaegal.
When he raised his whip, he saw that the lash was burning. His hand as well. All of him, all of
him was burning.
Oh, he thought. Then he began to scream.
JON
Let them die, said Queen Selyse.
It was the answer that Jon Snow had expected. This queen never fails to disappoint. Somehow
that did not soften the blow. Your Grace, he persisted stubbornly, they are starving at Hardhome by
the thousands. Many are women
and children, yes. Very sad. The queen pulled her daughter closer to her and kissed her
cheek. The cheek unmarred by greyscale, Jon did not fail to note. We are sorry for the little ones, of
course, but we must be sensible. We have no food for them, and they are too young to help the king my
husband in his wars. Better that they be reborn into the light.
That was just a softer way of saying let them die.
The chamber was crowded. Princess Shireen stood beside her mothers seat, with Patchface
cross-legged at her feet. Behind the queen loomed Ser Axell Florent. Melisandre of Asshai stood closer
to the fire, the ruby at her throat pulsing with every breath she took. The red woman too had her
attendantsthe squire Devan Seaworth and two of the guardsmen the king had left her.
Queen Selyses protectors stood along the walls, shining knights all in a row: Ser Malegorn, Ser
Benethon, Ser Narbert, Ser Patrek, Ser Dorden, Ser Brus. With so many bloodthirsty wildlings infesting
Castle Black, Selyse kept her sworn shields about her night and day. Tormund Giants-bane had roared to
hear it. Afraid of being carried off, is she? I hope you never said how big me member is, Jon Snow,
thatd frighten any woman. I always wanted me one with a mustache. Then he laughed and laughed.
He would not be laughing now.
Jon had wasted enough time here. Im sorry to have troubled Your Grace. The Nights Watch
will attend to this matter.

The queens nostrils flared. You still mean to ride to Hardhome. I see it on your face. Let them
die, I said, yet you will persist in this mad folly. Do not deny it.
I must do as I think best. With respect, Your Grace, the Wall is mine, and so is this decision.
It is, Selyse allowed, and you will answer for it when the king returns. And for other decisions
you have made, I fear. But I see that you are deaf to sense. Do what you must.
Up spoke Ser Malegorn. Lord Snow, who will lead this ranging?
Are you offering yourself, ser?
Do I look so foolish?
Patchface jumped up. I will lead it! His bells rang merrily. We will march into the sea and out
again. Under the waves we will ride seahorses, and mermaids will blow seashells to announce our
coming, oh, oh, oh.
They all laughed. Even Queen Selyse allowed herself a thin smile. Jon was less amused. I will
not ask my men to do what I would not do myself. I mean to lead the ranging.
How bold of you, said the queen. We approve. Afterward some bard will make a stirring song
about you, no doubt, and we shall have a more prudent lord commander. She took a sip of wine. Let
us speak of other matters. Axell, bring in the wildling king, if you would be so good.
At once, Your Grace. Ser Axell went through a door and returned a moment later with Gerrick
Kingsblood. Gerrick of House Redbeard, he announced, King of the Wildlings.
Gerrick Kingsblood was a tall man, long of leg and broad of shoulder. The queen had dressed
him in some of the kings old clothes, it appeared. Scrubbed and groomed, clad in green velvets and an
ermine half-cape, with his long red hair freshly washed and his fiery beard shaped and trimmed, the
wildling looked every inch a southron lord. He could walk into the throne room at Kings Landing, and no
one would blink an eye, Jon thought.
Gerrick is the true and rightful king of the wildlings, the queen said, descended in an
unbroken male line from their great king Raymun Red-beard, whereas the usurper Mance Rayder was
born of some common woman and fathered by one of your black brothers.
No, Jon might have said, Gerrick is descended from a younger brother of Raymun Redbeard. To
the free folk that counted about as much as being descended from Raymun Redbeards horse. They
know nothing, Ygritte. And worse, they will not learn.
Gerrick has graciously agreed to give the hand of his eldest daughter to my beloved Axell, to be
united by the Lord of Light in holy wedlock, Queen Selyse said. His other girls shall wed at the same
timethe second daughter with Ser Brus Buckler and the youngest with Ser Malegorn of Redpool.

Sers. Jon inclined his head to the knights in question. May you find happiness with your
betrothed.
Under the sea, men marry fishes. Patchface did a little dance step, jingling his bells. They do,
they do, they do.
Queen Selyse sniffed again. Four marriages can be made as simply as three. It is past time that
this woman Val was settled, Lord Snow. I have decided that she shall wed my good and leal knight, Ser
Patrek of Kings Mountain.
Has Val been told, Your Grace? asked Jon. Amongst the free folk, when a man desires a
woman, he steals her, and thus proves his strength, his cunning, and his courage. The suitor risks a
savage beating if he is caught by the womans kin, and worse than that if she herself finds him
unworthy.
A savage custom, Axell Florent said.
Ser Patrek only chuckled. No man has ever had cause to question my courage. No woman ever
will.
Queen Selyse pursed her lips. Lord Snow, as Lady Val is a stranger to our ways, please send her
to me, that I might instruct her in the duties of a noble lady toward her lord husband.
That will go splendidly, I know. Jon wondered if the queen would be so eager to see Val married
to one of her own knights if she knew Vals feelings about Princess Shireen. As you wish, he said,
though if I might speak freely
No, I think not. You may take your leave of us.
Jon Snow bent his knee, bowed his head, withdrew.
He took the steps two at a time, nodding to the queens guards as he descended. Her Grace had
posted men on every landing to keep her safe from murderous wildlings. Halfway down, a voice called
out from above him. Jon Snow.
Jon turned. Lady Melisandre.
We must speak.
Must we? I think not. My lady, I have duties.
It is those duties I would speak of. She made her way down, the hem of her scarlet skirts
swishing over the steps. It almost seemed as if she floated. Where is your direwolf?
Asleep in my chambers. Her Grace does not allow Ghost in her presence. She claims he scares
the princess. And so long as Borroq and his boar are about, I dare not let him loose. The skinchanger
was to accompany Soren Shieldbreaker to Stonedoor once the wayns carrying the Seal-skinners clan to

Greenguard returned. Until such time, Borroq had taken up residence in one of the ancient tombs
beside the castle lichyard. The company of men long dead seemed to suit him better than that of the
living, and his boar seemed happy rooting amongst the graves, well away from other animals. That
thing is the size of a bull, with tusks as long as swords. Ghost would go after him if he were loose, and
one or both of them would not survive the meeting.
Borroq is the least of your concerns. This ranging 
A word from you might have swayed the queen.
Selyse has the right of this, Lord Snow. Let them die. You cannot save them. Your ships are
lost
Six remain. More than half the fleet.
Your ships are lost. All of them. Not a man shall return. I have seen that in my fires.
Your fires have been known to lie.
I have made mistakes, I have admitted as much, but
A grey girl on a dying horse. Daggers in the dark. A promised prince, born in smoke and salt. It
seems to me that you make nothing but mis-takes, my lady. Where is Stannis? What of Rattleshirt and
his spearwives? Where is my sister?
All your questions shall be answered. Look to the skies, Lord Snow. And when you have your
answers, send to me. Winter is almost upon us now. I am your only hope.
A fools hope. Jon turned and left her.
Leathers was prowling the yard outside. Toregg has returned, he reported when Jon emerged.
His fathers settled his people at Oakenshield and will be back this afternoon with eighty fighting men.
What did the bearded queen have to say?
Her Grace can provide no help.
Too busy plucking out her chin hairs, is she? Leathers spat. Makes no matter. Tormunds men
and ours will be enough.
Enough to get us there, perhaps. It was the journey back that concerned Jon Snow. Coming
home, they would be slowed by thousands of free folk, many sick and starved. A river of humanity
moving slower than a river of ice. That would leave them vulnerable. Dead things in the woods. Dead
things in the water. How many men are enough? he asked Leathers. A hundred? Two hundred? Five
hundred? A thousand? Should I take more men, or fewer? A smaller ranging would reach Hardhome
sooner  but what good were swords without food? Mother Mole and her people were already at the
point of eating their own dead. To feed them, he would need to bring carts and wagons, and draft
animals to haul themhorses, oxen, dogs. Instead of flying through the wood, they would be

condemned to crawl. There is still much to decide. Spread the word. I want all the leading men in the
Shieldhall when the evening watch begins. Tormund should be back by then. Where can I find Toregg?
With the little monster, like as not. Hes taken a liking to one o them milkmaids, I hear.
He has taken a liking to Val. Her sister was a queen, why not her? Tormund had once thought to
make himself the King-Beyond-the-Wall, before Mance had bested him. Toregg the Tall might well be
dreaming the same dream. Better him than Gerrick Kingsblood. Let them be, said Jon. I can speak
with Toregg later. He glanced up past the Kings Tower. The Wall was a dull white, the sky above it
whiter. A snow sky. Just pray we do not get another storm.
Outside the armory, Mully and the Flea stood shivering at guard. Shouldnt you be inside, out
of this wind? Jon asked.
Thatd be sweet, mlord, said Fulk the Flea, but your wolfs in no mood for company today.
Mully agreed. He tried to take a bite o me, he did.
Ghost? Jon was shocked. Unless your lordship has some other white wolf, aye. I never seen
him like this, mlord. All wild-like, I mean.
He was not wrong, as Jon discovered for himself when he slipped inside the doors. The big white
direwolf would not lie still. He paced from one end of the armory to the other, past the cold forge and
back again. Easy, Ghost, Jon called. Down. Sit, Ghost. Down. Yet when he made to touch him, the
wolf bristled and bared his teeth. Its that bloody boar. Even in here, Ghost can smell his stink.
Mormonts raven seemed agitated too. Snow, the bird kept screaming. Snow, snow, snow.
Jon shooed him off, had Satin start a fire, then sent him out after Bowen Marsh and Othell Yarwyck.
Bring a flagon of mulled wine as well.
Three cups, mlord?
Six. Mully and the Flea look in need of something warm. So will you.
When Satin left, Jon seated himself and had another look at the maps of the lands north of the
Wall. The fastest way to Hardhome was along the coast  from Eastwatch. The woods were thinner near
the sea, the terrain mostly flatlands, rolling hills, and salt marshes. And when the autumn storms came
howling, the coast got sleet and hail and freezing rain rather than snow. The giants are at Eastwatch,
and Leathers says that some will help. From Castle Black the way was more difficult, right through the
heart of the haunted forest. If the snow is this deep at the Wall, how much worse up there?
Marsh entered snuffling, Yarwyck dour. Another storm, the First Builder announced. How are
we to work in this? I need more builders.
Use the free folk, Jon said.

Yarwyck shook his head. More trouble than theyre worth, that lot. Sloppy, careless, lazy 
some good woodworkers here and there, Ill not deny it, but hardly a mason amongst them, and nary a
smith. Strong backs, might be, but they wont do as they are told. And us with all these ruins to turn
back into forts. Cant be done, my lord. I tell you true. It cant be done.
It will be done, said Jon, or they will live in ruins.
A lord needed men about him he could rely upon for honest counsel. Marsh and Yarwyck were
no lickspittles, and that was to the good  but they were seldom any help either. More and more, he
found he knew what they would say before he asked them.
Especially when it concerned the free folk, where their disapproval went bone deep. When Jon
settled Stonedoor on Soren Shieldbreaker, Yarwyck complained that it was too isolated. How could they
know what mischief Soren might get up to, off in those hills? When he conferred Oakenshield on
Tormund Giantsbane and Queensgate on Morna White Mask, Marsh pointed out that Castle Black
would now have foes on either side who could easily cut them off from the rest of the Wall. As for
Borroq, Othell Yarwyck claimed the woods north of Stonedoor were full of wild boars. Who was to say
the skinchanger would not make his own pig army?
Hoarfrost Hill and Rimegate still lacked garrisons, so Jon had asked their views on which of the
remaining wildling chiefs and war lords might be best suited to hold them. We have Brogg, Gavin the
Trader, the Great Walrus  Howd Wanderer walks alone, Tormund says, but theres still Harle the
Huntsman, Harle the Handsome, Blind Doss  Ygon Old-father commands a following, but most are his
owns sons and grandsons. He has eighteen wives, half of them stolen on raids. Which of these 
None, Bowen Marsh had said. I know all these men by their deeds. We should be fitting them
for nooses, not giving them our castles.
Aye, Othell Yarwyck had agreed. Bad and worse and worst makes a beggars choice. My lord
had as well present us with a pack of wolves and ask which wed like to tear our throats out.
It was the same again with Hardhome. Satin poured whilst Jon told them of his audience with
the queen. Marsh listened attentively, ignoring the mulled wine, whilst Yarwyck drank one cup and then
another. But no sooner had Jon finished than the Lord Steward said, Her Grace is wise. Let them die.
Jon sat back. Is that the only counsel you can offer, my lord? Tormund is bringing eighty men.
How many should we send? Shall we call upon the giants? The spearwives at Long Barrow? If we have
women with us, it may put Mother Moles people at ease.
Send women, then. Send giants. Send suckling babes. Is that what my lord wishes to hear?
Bowen Marsh rubbed at the scar he had won at the Bridge of Skulls. Send them all. The more we lose,
the fewer mouths well have to feed.

Yarwyck was no more helpful. If the wildlings at Hardhome need saving, let the wildlings here
go save them. Tormund knows the way to Hard-home. To hear him talk, he can save them all himself
with his huge member.
This was pointless, Jon thought. Pointless, fruitless, hopeless. Thank you for your counsel, my
lords.
Satin helped them back into their cloaks. As they walked through the armory, Ghost sniffed at
them, his tail upraised and bristling. My brothers. The Nights Watch needed leaders with the wisdom of
Maester Aemon, the learning of Samwell Tarly, the courage of Qhorin Halfhand, the stubborn strength
of the Old Bear, the compassion of Donal Noye. What it had instead was them.
The snow was falling heavily outside. Winds from the south, Yarwyck observed. Its blowing
the snow right up against the Wall. See?
He was right. The switchback stair was buried almost to the first landing, Jon saw, and the
wooden doors of the ice cells and storerooms had vanished behind a wall of white. How many men do
we have in ice cells? he asked Bowen Marsh.
Four living men. Two dead ones.
The corpses. Jon had almost forgotten them. He had hoped to learn something from the bodies
theyd brought back from the weirwood grove, but the dead men had stubbornly remained dead. We
need to dig those cells out.
Ten stewards and ten spades should do it, said Marsh.
Use Wun Wun too.
As you command.
Ten stewards and one giant made short work of the drifts, but even when the doors were clear
again, Jon was not satisfied. Those cells will be buried again by morning. Wed best move the prisoners
before they smother.
Karstark too, mlord? asked Fulk the Flea. Cant we just leave that one shivering till spring?
Would that we could. Cregan Karstark had taken to howling in the night of late, and throwing
frozen feces at whoever came to feed him. That had not made him beloved of his guards. Take him to
the Lord Commanders Tower. The undervault should hold him. Though partly collapsed, the Old Bears
former seat would be warmer than the ice cells. Its subcellars were largely intact.
Cregan kicked at the guards when they came through the door, twisted and shoved when they
grabbed him, even tried to bite them. But the cold had weakened him, and Jons men were bigger,
younger, and stronger. They hauled him out, still struggling, and dragged him through thigh-high snow
to his new home.

What would the lord commander like us to do with his corpses? asked Marsh when the living
men had been moved.
Leave them. If the storm entombed them, well and good. He would need to burn them
eventually, no doubt, but for the nonce they were bound with iron chains inside their cells. That, and
being dead, should suffice to hold them harmless.
Tormund Giantsbane timed his arrival perfectly, thundering up with his warriors when all the
shoveling was done. Only fifty seemed to have turned up, not the eighty Toregg promised Leathers, but
Tormund was not called Tall-Talker for naught. The wildling arrived red-faced, shouting for a horn of ale
and something hot to eat. He had ice in his beard and more crusting his mustache.
Someone had already told the Thunderfist about Gerrick Kingsblood and his new style. King o
the Wildlings? Tormund roared. Har! King o My Hairy Butt Crack, more like.
He has a regal look to him, Jon said. He has a little red cock to go with all that red hair, thats
what he has. Raymund Redbeard and his sons died at Long Lake, thanks to your bloody Starks and the
Drunken Giant. Not the little brother. Ever wonder why they called him the Red Raven? Tormunds
mouth split in a gap-toothed grin. First to fly the battle, he was. Twas a song about it, after. The singer
had to find a rhyme for craven, so  He wiped his nose. If your queens knights want those girls o his,
theyre welcome to them.
Girls, squawked Mormonts raven. Girls, girls.
That set Tormund to laughing all over again. Now theres a bird with sense. How much do you
want for him, Snow? I gave you a son, the least you could do is give me the bloody bird.
I would, said Jon, but like as not youd eat him.
Tormund roared at that as well. Eat, the raven said darkly, flapping its black wings. Corn?
Corn? Corn?
We need to talk about the ranging, said Jon. I want us to be of one mind at the Shieldhall, we
must He broke off when Mully poked his nose inside the door, grim-faced, to announce that Clydas
had brought a letter.
Tell him to leave it with you. I will read it later.
As you say, mlord, only  Clydas dont look his proper self  hes more white than pink, if you
get my meaning  and hes shaking.
Dark wings, dark words, muttered Tormund. Isnt that what you kneelers say?
We say, Bleed a cold but feast a fever too, Jon told him. We say, Never drink with Dornishmen
when the moon is full. We say a lot of things.

Mully added his two groats. My old grandmother always used to say, Summer friends will melt
away like summer snows, but winter friends are friends forever.
I think thats sufficient wisdom for the moment, said Jon Snow. Show Clydas in if you would
be so good.
Mully had not been wrong; the old steward was trembling, his face as pale as the snows outside.
I am being foolish, Lord Commander, but  this letter frightens me. See here?
Bastard, was the only word written outside the scroll. No Lord Snow or Jon Snow or Lord
Commander. Simply Bastard. And the letter was sealed with a smear of hard pink wax. You were right
to come at once, Jon said. You were right to be afraid. He cracked the seal, flattened the parchment,
and read.
Your false king is dead, bastard. He and all his host were smashed in seven days of battle. I have
his magic sword. Tell his red whore.
Your false kings friends are dead. Their heads upon the walls of Winterfell. Come see them,
bastard. Your false king lied, and so did you. You told the world you burned the King-Beyond-the-Wall.
Instead you sent him to Winterfell to steal my bride from me.
I will have my bride back. If you want Mance Rayder back, come and get him. I have him in a
cage for all the north to see, proof of your lies. The cage is cold, but I have made him a warm cloak from
the skins of the six whores who came with him to Winterfell.
I want my bride back. I want the false kings queen. I want his daughter and his red witch. I want
his wildling princess.
I want his little prince, the wildling babe. And I want my Reek. Send them to me, bastard, and I
will not trouble you or your black crows. Keep them from me, and I will cut out your bastards heart and
eat it.
It was signed,
Ramsay Bolton,
Trueborn Lord of Winterfell.
Snow? said Tormund Giantsbane. You look like your fathers bloody head just rolled out o
that paper.
Jon Snow did not answer at once. Mully, help Clydas back to his chambers. The night is dark,
and the paths will be slippery with snow. Satin, go with them. He handed Tormund Giantsbane the
letter. Here, see for yourself.

The wildling gave the letter a dubious look and handed it right back. Feels nasty  but Tormund
Thunderfist had better things to do than learn to make papers talk at him. They never have any good to
say, now do they?
Not often, Jon Snow admitted. Dark wings, dark words. Perhaps there was more truth to
those wise old sayings than hed known. It was sent by Ramsay Snow. Ill read you what he wrote.
When he was done, Tormund whistled. Har. Thats buggered, and no mistake. What was that
about Mance? Has him in a cage, does he? How, when hundreds saw your red witch burn the man?
That was Rattleshirt, Jon almost said. That was sorcery. A glamor, she called it. Melisandre 
look to the skies, she said. He set the letter down. A raven in a storm. She saw this coming. When you
have your answers, send to me.
Might be all a skin o lies. Tormund scratched under his beard. If I had me a nice goose quill
and a pot o maesters ink, I could write down that me member was long and thick as me arm, wouldnt
make it so.
He has Lightbringer. He talks of heads upon the walls of Winterfell. He knows about the
spearwives and their number. He knows about Mance Rayder. No. There is truth in there.
I wont say youre wrong. What do you mean to do, crow?
Jon flexed the fingers of his sword hand. The Nights Watch takes no part. He closed his fist and
opened it again. What you propose is nothing less than treason. He thought of Robb, with snowflakes
melting in his hair. Kill the boy and let the man be born. He thought of Bran, clambering up a tower wall,
agile as a monkey. Of Rickons breathless laughter. Of Sansa, brushing out Ladys coat and singing to
herself. You know nothing, Jon Snow. He thought of Arya, her hair as tangled as a birds nest. I made him
a warm cloak from the skins of the six whores who came with him to Winterfell  I want my bride back 
I want my bride back  I want my bride back 
I think we had best change the plan, Jon Snow said.
They talked for the best part of two hours.
Horse and Rory had replaced Fulk and Mully at the armory door with the change of watch.
With me, Jon told them, when the time came. Ghost would have followed as well, but as the wolf
came padding after them, Jon grabbed him by the scruff of his neck and wrestled him back inside.
Borroq might be amongst those gathering at the Shieldhall. The last thing he needed just now was his
wolf savaging the skinchangers boar.
The Shieldhall was one of the older parts of Castle Black, a long drafty feast hall of dark stone, its
oaken rafters black with the smoke of centuries. Back when the Nights Watch had been much larger, its
walls had been hung with rows of brightly colored wooden shields. Then as now, when a knight took the

black, tradition decreed that he set aside his former arms and take up the plain black shield of the
brotherhood. The shields thus discarded would hang in the Shieldhall.
Hundreds of knights meant hundreds of shields. Hawks and eagles, dragons and griffins, suns
and stags, wolves and wyverns, manticores, bulls, trees and flowers, harps, spears, crabs and krakens,
red lions and golden lions and chequy lions, owls, lambs, maids and mermen, stallions, stars, buckets
and buckles, flayed men and hanged men and burning men, axes, longswords, turtles, unicorns, bears,
quills, spiders and snakes and scorpions, and a hundred other heraldic charges had adorned the
Shieldhall walls, blazoned in more colors than any rainbow ever dreamed of.
But when a knight died, his shield was taken down, that it might go with him to his pyre or his
tomb, and over the years and centuries fewer and fewer knights had taken the black. A day came when
it no longer made sense for the knights of Castle Black to dine apart. The Shieldhall was abandoned. In
the last hundred years, it had been used only infrequently. As a dining hall, it left much to be desiredit
was dark, dirty, drafty, and hard to heat in winter, its cellars infested with rats, its massive wooden
rafters worm-eaten and festooned with cobwebs.
But it was large and long enough to seat two hundred, and half again that many if they crowded
close. When Jon and Tormund entered, a sound went through the hall, like wasps stirring in a nest. The
wildlings outnumbered the crows by five to one, judging by how little black he saw. Fewer than a dozen
shields remained, sad grey things with faded paint and long cracks in the wood. But fresh torches
burned in the iron sconces along the walls, and Jon had ordered benches and tables brought in. Men
with comfortable seats were more inclined to listen, Maester Aemon had once told him; standing men
were more inclined to shout.
At the top of the hall a sagging platform stood. Jon mounted it, with Tormund Giantsbane at his
side, and raised his hands for quiet. The wasps only buzzed the louder. Then Tormund put his warhorn
to his lips and blew a blast. The sound filled the hall, echoing off the rafters overhead. Silence fell.
I summoned you to make plans for the relief of Hardhome, Jon Snow began. Thousands of
the free folk are gathered there, trapped and starving, and we have had reports of dead things in the
wood. To his left he saw Marsh and Yarwyck. Othell was surrounded by his builders, whilst Bowen had
Wick Whittlestick, Left Hand Lew, and Alf of Runnymudd beside him. To his right, Soren Shieldbreaker
sat with his arms crossed against his chest. Farther back, Jon saw Gavin the Trader and Harle the
Handsome whispering together. Ygon Oldfather sat amongst his wives, Howd Wanderer alone. Borroq
leaned against a wall in a dark corner. Mercifully, his boar was nowhere in evidence. The ships I sent to
take off Mother Mole and her people have been wracked by storms. We must send what help we can by
land or let them die. Two of Queen Selyses knights had come as well, Jon saw. Ser Narbert and Ser
Benethon stood near the door at the foot of the hall. But the rest of the queens men were conspicuous
in their absence. I had hoped to lead the ranging myself and bring back as many of the free folk as
could survive the journey. A flash of red in the back of the hall caught Jons eye. Lady Melisandre had
arrived. But now I find I cannot go to Hardhome. The ranging will be led by Tormund Giantsbane,
known to you all. I have promised him as many men as he requires.

And where will you be, crow? Borroq thundered. Hiding here in Castle Black with your white
dog?
No. I ride south. Then Jon read them the letter Ramsay Snow had written.
The Shieldhall went mad.
Every man began to shout at once. They leapt to their feet, shaking fists. So much for the
calming power of comfortable benches. Swords were brandished, axes smashed against shields. Jon
Snow looked to Tormund. The Giantsbane sounded his horn once more, twice as long and twice as loud
as the first time.
The Nights Watch takes no part in the wars of the Seven Kingdoms, Jon reminded them when
some semblance of quiet had returned. It is not for us to oppose the Bastard of Bolton, to avenge
Stannis Baratheon, to defend his widow and his daughter. This creature who makes cloaks from the
skins of women has sworn to cut my heart out, and I mean to make him answer for those words  but I
will not ask my brothers to forswear their vows.
The Nights Watch will make for Hardhome. I ride to Winterfell alone, unless  Jon paused. 
is there any man here who will come stand with me?
The roar was all he could have hoped for, the tumult so loud that the two old shields tumbled
from the walls. Soren Shieldbreaker was on his feet, the Wanderer as well. Toregg the Tall, Brogg, Harle
the Huntsman and Harle the Handsome both, Ygon Oldfather, Blind Doss, even the Great Walrus. I have
my swords, thought Jon Snow, and we are coming for you, Bastard.
Yarwyck and Marsh were slipping out, he saw, and all their men behind them. It made no
matter. He did not need them now. He did not want them. No man can ever say I made my brothers
break their vows. If this is oathbreaking, the crime is mine and mine alone. Then Tormund was pounding
him on the back, all gap-toothed grin from ear to ear. Well spoken, crow. Now bring out the mead!
Make them yours and get them drunk, thats how its done. Well make a wildling o you yet, boy. Har!
I will send for ale, Jon said, distracted. Melisandre was gone, he realized, and so were the
queens knights. I should have gone to Selyse first.
She has the right to know her lord is dead. You must excuse me. Ill leave you to get them
drunk.
Har! A task Im well suited for, crow. On your way!
Horse and Rory fell in beside Jon as he left the Shieldhall. I should talk with Melisandre after I
see the queen, he thought. If she could see a raven in a storm, she can find Ramsay Snow for me. Then
he heard the shouting  and a roar so loud it seemed to shake the Wall. That come from Hardins
Tower, mlord, Horse reported. He might have said more, but the scream cut him off.

Val, was Jons first thought. But that was no womans scream. That is a man in mortal agony. He
broke into a run. Horse and Rory raced after him. Is it wights? asked Rory. Jon wondered. Could his
corpses have escaped their chains?
The screaming had stopped by the time they came to Hardins Tower, but Wun Weg Wun Dar
Wun was still roaring. The giant was dangling a bloody corpse by one leg, the same way Arya used to
dangle her doll when she was small, swinging it like a morningstar when menaced by vegetables. Arya
never tore her dolls to pieces, though. The dead mans sword arm was yards away, the snow beneath it
turning red.
Let him go, Jon shouted. Wun Wun, let him go.
Wun Wun did not hear or did not understand. The giant was bleeding himself, with sword cuts
on his belly and his arm. He swung the dead knight against the grey stone of the tower, again and again
and again, until the mans head was red and pulpy as a summer melon. The knights cloak flapped in the
cold air. Of white wool it had been, bordered in cloth-of-silver and patterned with blue stars. Blood and
bone were flying everywhere.
Men poured from the surrounding keeps and towers. Northmen, free folk, queens men 
Form a line, Jon Snow commanded them. Keep them back. Everyone, but especially the queens
men. The dead man was Ser Patrek of Kings Mountain; his head was largely gone, but his heraldry was
as distinctive as his face. Jon did not want to risk Ser Malegorn or Ser Brus or any of the queens other
knights trying to avenge him.
Wun Weg Wun Dar Wun howled again and gave Ser Patreks other arm a twist and pull. It tore
loose from his shoulder with a spray of bright red blood. Like a child pulling petals off a daisy, thought
Jon. Leathers, talk to him, calm him. The Old Tongue, he understands the Old Tongue. Keep back, the
rest of you. Put away your steel, were scaring him. Couldnt they see the giant had been cut? Jon had
to put an end to this or more men would die. They had no idea of Wun Wuns strength. A horn, I need a
horn. He saw the glint of steel, turned toward it. No blades! he screamed. Wick, put that knife 
 away, he meant to say. When Wick Whittlestick slashed at his throat, the word turned into a
grunt. Jon twisted from the knife, just enough so it barely grazed his skin. He cut me. When he put his
hand to the side of his neck, blood welled between his fingers. Why?
For the Watch. Wick slashed at him again. This time Jon caught his wrist and bent his arm back
until he dropped the dagger. The gangling steward backed away, his hands upraised as if to say, Not me,
it was not me. Men were screaming. Jon reached for Longclaw, but his fingers had grown stiff and
clumsy. Somehow he could not seem to get the sword free of its scabbard.
Then Bowen Marsh stood there before him, tears running down his cheeks. For the Watch. He
punched Jon in the belly. When he pulled his hand away, the dagger stayed where he had buried it.
Jon fell to his knees. He found the daggers hilt and wrenched it free. In the cold night air the
wound was smoking. Ghost, he whispered. Pain washed over him. Stick them with the pointy end.

When the third dagger took him between the shoulder blades, he gave a grunt and fell face-first into the
snow. He never felt the fourth knife. Only the cold 
THE QUEENS HAND
The Dornish prince was three days dying.
He took his last shuddering breath in the bleak black dawn, as cold rain hissed from a dark sky to
turn the brick streets of the old city into rivers. The rain had drowned the worst of the fires, but wisps of
smoke still rose from the smoldering ruin that had been the pyramid of Hazkar, and the great black
pyramid of Yherizan where Rhaegal had made his lair hulked in the gloom like a fat woman bedecked
with glowing orange jewels.
Perhaps the gods are not deaf after all, Ser Barristan Selmy reflected as he watched those
distant embers. If not for the rain, the fires might have consumed all of Meereen by now.
He saw no sign of dragons, but he had not expected to. The dragons did not like the rain. A thin
red slash marked the eastern horizon where the sun might soon appear. It reminded Selmy of the first
blood welling from a wound. Often, even with a deep cut, the blood came before the pain.
He stood beside the parapets of the highest step of the Great Pyramid, searching the sky as he
did every morning, knowing that the dawn must come and hoping that his queen would come with it.
She will not have abandoned us, she would never leave her people, he was telling himself, when he
heard the princes death rattle coming from the queens apartments.
Ser Barristan went inside. Rainwater ran down the back of his white cloak, and his boots left wet
tracks on the floors and carpets. At his command, Quentyn Martell had been laid out in the queens own
bed. He had been a knight, and a prince of Dorne besides. It seemed only kind to let him die in the bed
he had crossed half a world to reach. The bedding was ruinedsheets, covers, pillows, mattress, all
reeked of blood and smoke, but Ser Barristan thought Daenerys would forgive him.
Missandei sat at the bedside. She had been with the prince night and day, tending to such needs
as he could express, giving him water and milk of the poppy when he was strong enough to drink,
listening to the few tortured words he gasped out from time to time, reading to him when he fell quiet,
sleeping in her chair beside him. Ser Barristan had asked some of the queens cupbearers to help, but
the sight of the burned man was too much for even the boldest of them. And the Blue Graces had never
come, though hed sent for them four times. Perhaps the last of them had been carried off by the pale
mare by now.
The tiny Naathi scribe looked up at his approach. Honored ser. The prince is beyond pain now.
His Dornish gods have taken him home. See? He smiles.

How can you tell? He has no lips. It would have been kinder if the dragons had devoured him.
That at least would have been quick. This  Fire is a hideous way to die. Small wonder half the hells are
made of flame. Cover him.
Missandei pulled the coverlet over the princes face. What will be done with him, ser? He is so
very far from home.
Ill see that hes returned to Dorne. But how? As ashes? That would require more fire, and Ser
Barristan could not stomach that. Well need to strip the flesh from his bones. Beetles, not boiling. The
silent sisters would have seen to it at home, but this was Slavers Bay. The nearest silent sister was ten
thousand leagues away. You should go sleep now, child. In your own bed.
If this one may be so bold, ser, you should do the same. You do not sleep the whole night
through.
Not for many years, child. Not since the Trident. Grand Maester Pycelle had once told him that
old men do not need as much sleep as the young, but it was more than that. He had reached that age
when he was loath to close his eyes, for fear that he might never open them again. Other men might
wish to die in bed asleep, but that was no death for a knight of the Kingsguard.
The nights are too long, he told Missandei, and there is much and more to do, always. Here,
as in the Seven Kingdoms. But you have done enough for now, child. Go and rest. And if the gods are
good, you will not dream of dragons.
After the girl was gone, the old knight peeled back the coverlet for one last look at Quentyn
Martells face, or what remained of it. So much of the princes flesh had sloughed away that he could
see the skull beneath. His eyes were pools of pus. He should have stayed in Dorne. He should have
stayed a frog. Not all men are meant to dance with dragons. As he covered the boy once more, he found
himself wondering whether there would be anyone to cover his queen, or whether her own corpse
would lie un-mourned amongst the tall grasses of the Dothraki sea, staring blindly at the sky until her
flesh fell from her bones.
No, he said aloud. Daenerys is not dead. She was riding that dragon. I saw it with mine own
two eyes. He had said the same a hundred times before  but every day that passed made it harder to
believe. Her hair was afire. I saw that too. She was burning  and if I did not see her fall, hundreds swear
they did.
Day had crept upon the city. Though the rain still fell, a vague light suffused the eastern sky. And
with the sun arrived the Shavepate. Skahaz was clad in his familiar garb of pleated black skirt, greaves,
and muscled breastplate. The brazen mask beneath his arm was newa wolfs head with lolling tongue.
So, he said, by way of greeting, the fool is dead, is he?
Prince Quentyn died just before first light. Selmy was not surprised that Skahaz knew. Word
traveled quickly within the pyramid. Is the council assembled?

They await the Hands pleasure below.
I am no Hand, a part of him wanted to cry out. I am only a simple knight, the queens protector. I
never wanted this. But with the queen gone and the king in chains, someone had to rule, and Ser
Barristan did not trust the Shavepate. Has there been any word from the Green Grace?
She is not yet returned to the city. Skahaz had opposed sending the priestess. Nor had Galazza
Galare herself embraced the task. She would go, she allowed, for the sake of peace, but Hizdahr zo
Loraq was better suited to treat with the Wise Masters. But Ser Barristan did not yield easily, and finally
the Green Grace had bowed her head and sworn to do her best.
How stands the city? Selmy asked the Shavepate now. All the gates are closed and barred, as
you commanded. We are hunting down any sellswords or Yunkaii left inside the city and expelling or
arresting those we catch. Most seem to have gone to ground. Inside the pyramids, beyond a doubt. The
Unsullied man the walls and towers, ready for any assault. There are two hundred highborn gathered in
the square, standing in the rain in their tokars and howling for audience. They want Hizdahr free and me
dead, and they want you to slay these dragons. Someone told them knights were good at that. Men are
still pulling corpses from the pyramid of Hazkar. The Great Masters of Yherizan and Uhlez have
abandoned their own pyramids to the dragons.
Ser Barristan had known all that. And the butchers tally? he asked, dreading the answer.
Nine-and-twenty.
Nine-and-twenty? That was far worse than he could ever have imagined. The Sons of the
Harpy had resumed their shadow war two days ago. Three murders the first night, nine the second. But
to go from nine to nine-and-twenty in a single night 
The count will pass thirty before midday. Why do you look so grey, old man? What did you
expect? The Harpy wants Hizdahr free, so he has sent his sons back into the streets with knives in hand.
The dead are all freed-men and shavepates, as before. One was mine, a Brazen Beast. The sign of the
Harpy was left beside the bodies, chalked on the pavement or scratched into a wall. There were
messages as well. Dragons must die, they wrote, and Harghaz the Hero. Death to Daenerys was seen
as well, before the rain washed out the words.
The blood tax 
Twenty-nine hundred pieces of gold from each pyramid, aye, Skahaz grumbled. It will be
collected  but the loss of a few coins will never stay the Harpys hand. Only blood can do that.
So you say. The hostages again. He would kill them every one if I allowed it. I heard you the
first hundred times. No.

Queens Hand, Skahaz grumbled with disgust. An old womans hand, I am thinking, wrinkled
and feeble. I pray Daenerys returns to us soon. He pulled his brazen wolfs mask down over his face.
Your council will be growing restless.
They are the queens council, not mine. Selmy exchanged his damp cloak for a dry one and
buckled on his sword belt, then accompanied the Shavepate down the steps.
The pillared hall was empty of petitioners this morning. Though he had assumed the title of
Hand, Ser Barristan would not presume to hold court in the queens absence, nor would he permit
Skahaz mo Kandaq to do such. Hizdahrs grotesque dragon thrones had been removed at Ser Barristans
command, but he had not brought back the simple pillowed bench the queen had favored. Instead a
large round table had been set up in the center of the hall, with tall chairs all around it where men might
sit and talk as peers.
They rose when Ser Barristan came down the marble steps, Skahaz Shavepate at his side.
Marselen of the Mothers Men was present, with Symon Stripeback, commander of the Free Brothers.
The Stalwart Shields had chosen a new commander, a black-skinned Summer Islander called Tal Toraq,
their old captain, Mollono Yos Dob, having been carried off by the pale mare. Grey Worm was there for
the Unsullied, attended by three eunuch serjeants in spiked bronze caps. The Stormcrows were
represented by two seasoned sellswords, an archer named Jokin and the scarred and sour axeman
known simply as the Widower. The two of them had assumed joint command of the company in the
absence of Daario Naharis. Most of the queens khalasar had gone with Aggo and Rakharo to search for
her on the Dothraki sea, but the squinty, bowlegged jaqqa rhan Rommo was there to speak for the
riders who remained.
And across the table from Ser Barristan sat four of King Hizdahrs erst-while guardsmen, the pit
fighters Goghor the Giant, Belaquo Bonebreaker, Camarron of the Count, and the Spotted Cat. Selmy
had insisted on their presence, over the objections of Skahaz Shavepate. They had helped Daenerys
Targaryen take this city once, and that should not be forgotten. Blood-soaked brutes and killers they
might be, but in their own way they had been loyal  to King Hizdahr, yes, but to the queen as well.
Last to come, Strong Belwas lumbered into the hall.
The eunuch had looked death in the face, so near he might have kissed her on the lips. It had
marked him. He looked to have lost two stone of weight, and the dark brown skin that had once
stretched tight across a massive chest and belly, crossed by a hundred faded scars, now hung on him in
loose folds, sagging and wobbling, like a robe cut three sizes too large. His step had slowed as well, and
seemed a bit uncertain.
Even so, the sight of him gladdened the old knights heart. He had once crossed the world with
Strong Belwas, and he knew he could rely on him, should all this come to swords. Belwas. We are
pleased that you could join us.

Whitebeard. Belwas smiled. Where is liver and onions? Strong Belwas is not so strong as
before, he must eat, get big again. They made Strong Belwas sick. Someone must die.
Someone will. Many someones, like as not. Sit, my friend. When Belwas sat and crossed his
arms, Ser Barristan went on. Quentyn Martell died this morning, just before the dawn.
The Widower laughed. The dragonrider.
Fool, I call him, said Symon Stripeback.
No, just a boy. Ser Barristan had not forgotten the follies of his own youth. Speak no ill of the
dead. The prince paid a ghastly price for what he did.
And the other Dornish? asked Tal Taraq. Prisoners, for the nonce. Neither of the
Dornishmen had offered any resistance. Archibald Yronwood had been cradling his princes scorched
and smoking body when the Brazen Beasts had found him, as his burned hands could testify. He had
used them to beat out the flames that had engulfed Quentyn Martell. Gerris Drinkwater was standing
over them with sword in hand, but he had dropped the blade the moment the locusts had appeared.
They share a cell.
Let them share a gibbet, said Symon Stripeback. They unleashed two dragons on the city.
Open the pits and give them swords, urged the Spotted Cat. I will kill them both as all
Meereen shouts out my name.
The fighting pits will remain closed, said Selmy. Blood and noise would only serve to call the
dragons.
All three, perhaps, suggested Marselen. The black beast came once, why not again? This time
with our queen.
Or without her. Should Drogon return to Meereen without Daenerys mounted on his back, the
city would erupt in blood and flame, of that Ser Barristan had no doubt. The very men sitting at this
table would soon be at dagger points with one another. A young girl she might be, but Daenerys
Targaryen was the only thing that held them all together.
Her Grace will return when she returns, said Ser Barristan. We have herded a thousand sheep
into the Daznaks Pit, filled the Pit of Ghrazz with bullocks, and the Golden Pit with beasts that Hizdahr
zo Loraq had gathered for his games. Thus far both dragons seemed to have a taste for mutton,
returning to Daznaks whenever they grew hungry. If either one was hunting man, inside or outside the
city, Ser Barristan had yet to hear of it. The only Meereenese the dragons had slain since Harghaz the
Hero had been the slav ers foolish enough to object when Rhaegal attempted to make his lair atop the
pyramid of Hazkar. We have more pressing matters to discuss. I have sent the Green Grace to the
Yunkishmen to make arrangements for the release of our hostages. I expect her back by midday with
their answer.

With words, said the Widower. The Stormcrows know the Yunkaii. Their tongues are worms
that wriggle this way or that. The Green Grace will come back with worm words, not the captain.
If it pleases the Queens Hand to recall, the Wise Masters hold our Hero too, said Grey Worm.
Also the horselord Jhogo, the queens own blood rider.
Blood of her blood, agreed the Dothraki Rommo. He must be freed. The honor of the
khalasar demands it.
He shall be freed, said Ser Barristan, but first we must needs wait and see if the Green Grace
can accomplish
Skahaz Shavepate slammed his fist upon the table. The Green Grace will accomplish nothing.
She may be conspiring with the Yunkaii even as we sit here. Arrangements, did you say? Make
arrangements? What sort of arrangements?
Ransom, said Ser Barristan. Each mans weight in gold.
The Wise Masters do not need our gold, ser, said Marselen. They are richer than your
Westerosi lords, every one.
Their sellswords will want the gold, though. What are the hostages to them? If the Yunkishmen
refuse, it will drive a blade between them and their hirelings. Or so I hope. It had been Missandei who
suggested the ploy to him. He would never have thought of such a thing himself. In Kings Landing,
bribes had been Littlefingers domain, whilst Lord Varys had the task of fostering division amongst the
crowns enemies. His own duties had been more straightforward. Eleven years of age, yet Missandei is
as clever as half the men at this table and wiser than all of them. I have instructed the Green Grace to
present the offer only when all of the Yunkish commanders have assembled to hear it.
They will refuse, even so, insisted Symon Stripeback. They will say they want the dragons
dead, the king restored.
I pray that you are wrong. And fear that you are right. Your gods are far away, Ser
Grandfather, said the Widower. I do not think they hear your prayers. And when the Yunkaii send
back the old woman to spit in your eye, what then?
Fire and blood, said Barristan Selmy, softly, softly.
For a long moment no one spoke. Then Strong Belwas slapped his belly and said, Better than
liver and onions, and Skahaz Shavepate stared through the eyes of his wolfs head mask and said, You
would break King Hizdahrs peace, old man?
I would shatter it. Once, long ago, a prince had named him Barristan the Bold. A part of that
boy was in him still. We have built a beacon atop the pyramid where once the Harpy stood. Dry wood
soaked with oil, covered to keep the rain off. Should the hour come, and I pray that it does not, we will
light that beacon. The flames will be your signal to pour out of our gates and attack. Every man of you

will have a part to play, so every man must be in readiness at all times, day or night. We will destroy our
foes or be destroyed ourselves. He raised a hand to signal to his waiting squires. I have had some
maps prepared to show the dispositions of our foes, their camps and siege lines and trebuchets. If we
can break the slavers, their sellswords will abandon them. I know you will have concerns and questions.
Voice them here. By the time we leave this table, all of us must be of a single mind, with a single
purpose.
Best send down for some food and drink, then, suggested Symon Stripeback. This will take a
while.
It took the rest of the morning and most of the afternoon. The captains and commanders
argued over the maps like fishwives over a bucket of crabs. Weak points and strong points, how to best
employ their small company of archers, whether the elephants should be used to break the Yunkish
lines or held in reserve, who should have the honor of leading the first advance, whether their horse
cavalry was best deployed on the flanks or in the vanguard.
Ser Barristan let each man speak his mind. Tal Toraq thought that they should march on Yunkai
once they had broken through the lines; the Yellow City would be almost undefended, so the Yunkaii
would have no choice but to lift the siege and follow. The Spotted Cat proposed to challenge the enemy
to send forth a champion to face him in single combat. Strong Belwas liked that notion but insisted he
should fight, not the Cat. Camarron of the Count put forth a scheme to seize the ships tied up along the
riverfront and use the Skahazadhan to bring three hundred pit fighters around the Yunkish rear. Every
man there agreed that the Unsul-lied were their best troops, but none agreed on how they should be
deployed. The Widower wanted to use the eunuchs as an iron fist to smash through the heart of the
Yunkish defenses. Marselen felt they would be better placed at either end of the main battle line, where
they could beat back any attempt by the foe to turn their flanks. Symon Stripeback wanted them split
into three and divided amongst the three companies of freed-men. His Free Brothers were brave and
eager for the fight, he claimed, but without the Unsullied to stiffen them he feared his unblooded troops
might not have the discipline to face battle-seasoned sell swords by themselves. Grey Worm said only
that the Unsullied would obey, whatever might be asked of them.
And when all that had been discussed, debated, and decided, Symon Stripeback raised one final
point. As a slave in Yunkai I helped my master bargain with the free companies and saw to the payment
of their wages.
I know sellswords, and I know that the Yunkaii cannot pay them near enough to face
dragonflame. So I ask you  if the peace should fail and this battle should be joined, will the dragons
come? Will they join the fight?
They will come, Ser Barristan might have said. The noise will bring them, the shouts and screams,
the scent of blood. That will draw them to the battlefield, just as the roar from Daznaks Pit drew Drogon
to the scarlet sands. But when they come, will they know one side from the other? Somehow he did not
think so. So he said only, The dragons will do what the dragons will do. If they do come, it may be that

just the shadow of their wings will be enough to dishearten the slavers and send them fleeing. Then he
thanked them and dismissed them all.
Grey Worm lingered after the others had left. These ones will be ready when the beacon fire is
lit. But the Hand must surely know that when we attack, the Yunkaii will kill the hostages.
I will do all I can to prevent that, my friend. I have a  notion. But pray excuse me. It is past
time the Dornishmen heard that their prince is dead.
Grey Worm inclined his head. This one obeys.
Ser Barristan took two of his new-made knights with him down into the dungeons. Grief and
guilt had been known to drive good men into madness, and Archibald Yronwood and Gerris Drinkwater
had both played roles in their friends demise. But when they reached the cell, he told Tum and the Red
Lamb to wait outside whilst he went in to tell the Dornish that the princes agony was over.
Ser Archibald, the big bald one, had nothing to say. He sat on the edge of his pallet, staring
down at his bandaged hands in their linen wrappings. Ser Gerris punched a wall. I told him it was folly. I
begged him to go home. Your bitch of a queen had no use for him, any man could see that. He crossed
the world to offer her his love and fealty, and she laughed in his face.
She never laughed, said Selmy. If you knew her, you would know that.
She spurned him. He offered her his heart, and she threw it back at him and went off to fuck
her sellsword.
You had best guard that tongue, ser. Ser Barristan did not like this Gerris Drinkwater, nor
would he allow him to vilify Daenerys. Prince Quentyns death was his own doing, and yours.
Ours? How are we at fault, ser? Quentyn was our friend, yes. A bit of a fool, you might say, but
all dreamers are fools. But first and last he was our prince. We owed him our obedience.
Barristan Selmy could not dispute the truth of that. He had spent the best part of his own life
obeying the commands of drunkards and madmen. He came too late.
He offered her his heart, Ser Gerris said again. She needed swords, not hearts.
He would have given her the spears of Dorne as well.
Would that he had. No one had wanted Daenerys to look with favor on the Dornish prince
more than Barristan Selmy. He came too late, though, and this folly  buying sellswords, loosing two
dragons on the city  that was madness and worse than madness. That was treason.
What he did he did for love of Queen Daenerys, Gerris Drinkwater insisted. To prove himself
worthy of her hand.

The old knight had heard enough. What Prince Quentyn did he did for Dorne. Do you take me
for some doting grandfather? I have spent my life around kings and queens and princes. Sunspear
means to take up arms against the Iron Throne. No, do not trouble to deny it. Doran Mar-tell is not a
man to call his spears without hope of victory. Duty brought Prince Quentyn here. Duty, honor, thirst for
glory  never love. Quentyn was here for dragons, not Daenerys.
You did not know him, ser. He
Hes dead, Drink. Yronwood rose to his feet. Words wont fetch him back. Cletus and Will are
dead too. So shut your bloody mouth before I stick my fist in it. The big knight turned to Selmy. What
do you mean to do with us?
Skahaz Shavepate wants you hanged. You slew four of his men. Four of the queens men. Two
were freedmen who had followed Her Grace since Astapor.
Yronwood did not seem surprised. The beast men, aye. I only killed the one, the basilisk head.
The sellswords did the others. Dont matter, though, I know that.
We were protecting Quentyn, said Drinkwater. We
Be quiet, Drink. He knows. To Ser Barristan the big knight said, No need to come and talk if
you meant to hang us. So its not that, is it?
No. This one may not be as slow-witted as he seems. I have more use for you alive than dead.
Serve me, and afterward I will arrange a ship to take you back to Dorne and give you Prince Quentyns
bones to return to his lord father.
Ser Archibald grimaced. Why is it always ships? Someone needs to take Quent home, though.
What do you ask of us, ser?
Your swords.
You have thousands of swords.
The queens freedmen are as yet unblooded. The sellswords I do not trust. Unsullied are brave
soldiers  but not warriors. Not knights. He paused. What happened when you tried to take the
dragons? Tell me.
The Dornishmen exchanged a look. Then Drinkwater said, Quentyn told the Tattered Prince he
could control them. It was in his blood, he said. He had Targaryen blood.
Blood of the dragon.
Yes. The sellswords were supposed to help us get the dragons chained up so we could get them
to the docks.

Rags arranged for a ship, said Yronwood. A big one, in case we got both dragons. And Quent
was going to ride one. He looked at his bandaged hands. The moment we got in, though, you could
see none of it was going to work. The dragons were too wild. The chains  there were bits of broken
chain everywhere, big chains, links the size of your head mixed in with all these cracked and splintered
bones. And Quent, Seven save him, he looked like he was going to shit his smallclothes. Caggo and Meris
werent blind, they saw it too. Then one of the cross-bowmen let fly. Maybe they meant to kill the
dragons all along and were only using us to get to them. You never know with Tatters. Any way you hack
it off, it werent clever. The quarrel just made the dragons angry, and they hadnt been in such a good
mood to start with. Then  then things got bad.
And the Windblown blew away, said Ser Gerris. Quent was screaming, covered in flames, and
they were gone. Caggo, Pretty Meris, all but the dead one.
Ah, what did you expect, Drink? A cat will kill a mouse, a pig will wallow in shit, and a sellsword
will run off when hes needed most. Cant be blamed. Just the nature of the beast.
Hes not wrong, Ser Barristan said. What did Prince Quentyn promise the Tattered Prince in
return for all this help?
He got no answer. Ser Gerris looked at Ser Archibald. Ser Archibald looked at his hands, the
floor, the door.
Pentos, said Ser Barristan. He promised him Pentos. Say it. No words of yours can help or
harm Prince Quentyn now.
Aye, said Ser Archibald unhappily. It was Pentos. They made marks on a paper, the two of
them.
There is a chance here. We still have Windblown in the dungeons. Those feigned deserters.
I remember, said Yronwood. Hungerford, Straw, that lot. Some of them werent so bad for
sellswords. Others, well, might be they could stand a bit of dying. What of them?
I mean to send them back to the Tattered Prince. And you with them. You will be two amongst
thousands. Your presence in the Yunkish camps should pass unnoticed. I want you to deliver a message
to the Tattered Prince. Tell him that I sent you, that I speak with the queens voice. Tell him that well
pay his price if he delivers us our hostages, unharmed and whole.
Ser Archibald grimaced. Rags and Tatters is more like to give the two of us to Pretty Meris. He
wont do it.
Why not? The task is simple enough. Compared to stealing dragons. I once brought the
queens father out of Duskendale.
That was Westeros, said Gerris Drinkwater. This is Meereen.

Arch cannot even hold a sword with those hands.
He ought not need to. You will have the sellswords with you, unless I mistake my man.
Gerris Drinkwater pushed back his mop of sun-streaked hair. Might we have some time to
discuss this amongst ourselves?
No, said Selmy. Ill do it, offered Ser Archibald, just so long as theres no bloody boats
involved. Drink will do it too. He grinned. He dont know it yet, but he will.
And that was done.
The simple part, at least, thought Barristan Selmy, as he made the long climb back to the summit
of the pyramid. The hard part hed left in Dornish hands. His grandfather would have been aghast. The
Dornishmen were knights, at least in name, though only Yronwood impressed him as having the true
steel. Drinkwater had a pretty face, a glib tongue, and a fine head of hair.
By the time the old knight returned to the queens rooms atop the pyramid, Prince Quentyns
corpse had been removed. Six of the young cup-bearers were playing some childs game as he entered,
sitting in a circle on the floor as they took turns spinning a dagger. When it wobbled to a stop they cut a
lock of hair off whichever of them the blade was pointing at. Ser Barristan had played a similar game
with his cousins when he was just a boy at Harvest Hall  though in Westeros, as he recalled, kissing had
been involved as well. Bhakaz, he called. A cup of wine, if you would be so good. Grazhar, Azzak, the
door is yours. I am expecting the Green Grace. Show her in at once when she arrives. Elsewise, I do not
wish to be disturbed.
Azzak scrambled to his feet. As you command, Lord Hand.
Ser Barristan went out onto the terrace. The rain had stopped, though a wall of slate-grey clouds
hid the setting sun as it made its descent into Slavers Bay. A few wisps of smoke still rose from the
blackened stones of Hazdar, twisted like ribbons by the wind. Far off to the east, beyond the city walls,
he saw pale wings moving above a distant line of hills. Viserion. Hunting, mayhaps, or flying just to fly.
He wondered where Rhaegal was. Thus far the green dragon had shown himself to be more dangerous
than the white.
When Bhakaz brought his wine, the old knight took one long swallow and sent the boy for
water. A few cups of wine might be just the thing to help him sleep, but he would need his wits about
him when Galazza Galare returned from treating with the foe. So he drank his wine well watered, as the
world grew dark around him. He was very tired, and full of doubts. The Dornishmen, Hizdahr, Reznak,
the attack  was he doing the right things? Was he doing what Daenerys would have wanted? I was not
made for this. Other Kingsguard had served as Hand before him. Not many, but a few. He had read of
them in the White Book. Now he found himself wondering whether they had felt as lost and confused as
he did.

Lord Hand. Grazhar stood in the door, a taper in his hand. The Green Grace has come. You
asked to be told.
Show her in. And light some candles.
Galazza Galare was attended by four Pink Graces. An aura of wisdom and dignity seemed to
surround her that Ser Barristan could not help but admire. This is a strong woman, and she has been a
faithful friend to Daenerys. Lord Hand, she said, her face hidden behind shimmering green veils. May
I sit? These bones are old and weary.
Grazhar, a chair for the Green Grace. The Pink Graces arrayed themselves behind her, with
eyes lowered and hands clasped before them. May I offer you refreshment? asked Ser Barristan.
That would be most welcome, Ser Barristan. My throat is dry from talking. A juice, perhaps?
As you wish. He beckoned to Kezmya and had her fetch the priestess a goblet of lemon juice,
sweetened with honey. To drink it, the priestess had to remove her veil, and Selmy was reminded of just
how old she was. Twenty years my elder, or more. If the queen were here, I know she would join me in
thanking you for all that you have done for us.
Her Magnificence has always been most gracious. Galazza Galare finished her drink and
fastened up her veil again. Have there been any further tidings of our sweet queen?
None as yet.
I shall pray for her. And what of King Hizdahr, if I may be so bold? Might I be permitted to see
His Radiance?
Soon, I hope. He is unharmed, I promise you.
I am pleased to hear that. The Wise Masters of Yunkai asked after him. You will not be
surprised to hear that they wish the noble Hizdahr to be restored at once to his rightful place.
He shall be, if it can be proved that he did not try to kill our queen. Until such time, Meereen
will be ruled by a council of the loyal and just. There is a place for you on that council. I know that you
have much to teach us all, Your Benevolence. We need your wisdom.
I fear you flatter me with empty courtesies, Lord Hand, the Green Grace said. If you truly
think me wise, heed me now. Release the noble Hizdahr and restore him to his throne.
Only the queen can do that.
Beneath her veils, the Green Grace sighed. The peace that we worked so hard to forge flutters
like a leaf in an autumn wind. These are dire days. Death stalks our streets, riding the pale mare from
thrice-cursed Astapor. Dragons haunt the skies, feasting on the flesh of children. Hundreds are taking
ship, sailing for Yunkai, for Tolos, for Qarth, for any refuge that will have them. The pyramid of Hazkar
has collapsed into a smoking ruin, and many of that ancient line lie dead beneath its blackened stones.

The pyramids of Uhlez and Yherizan have become the lairs of monsters, their masters homeless beggars.
My people have lost all hope and turned against the gods themselves, giving over their nights to
drunkenness and fornication.
And murder. The Sons of the Harpy slew thirty in the night.
I grieve to hear this. All the more reason to free the noble Hizdahr zo Loraq, who stopped such
killings once.
And how did he accomplish that, unless he is himself the Harpy? Her Grace gave her hand to
Hizdahr zo Loraq, made him her king and consort, restored the mortal art as he beseeched her. In return
he gave her poisoned locusts.
In return he gave her peace. Do not cast it away, ser, I beg you. Peace is the pearl beyond price.
Hizdahr is of Loraq. Never would he soil his hands with poison. He is innocent.
How can you be certain? Unless you know the poisoner. The gods of Ghis have told me.
My gods are the Seven, and the Seven have been silent on this matter. Your Wisdom, did you
present my offer?
To all the lords and captains of Yunkai, as you commanded me  yet I fear you will not like their
answer.
They refused?
They did. No amount of gold will buy your people back, I was told. Only the blood of dragons
may set them free again.
It was the answer Ser Barristan had expected, if not the one that he had hoped for. His mouth
tightened.
I know these were not the words you wished to hear, said Galazza Galare. Yet for myself, I
understand. These dragons are fell beasts. Yunkai fears them  and with good cause, you cannot deny.
Our histories speak of the dragonlords of dread Valyria and the devastation that they wrought upon the
peoples of Old Ghis. Even your own young queen, fair Daenerys who called herself the Mother of
Dragons  we saw her burning, that day in the pit  even she was not safe from the dragons wroth.
Her Grace is not  she 
 is dead. May the gods grant her sweet sleep. Tears glistened behind her veils. Let her
dragons die as well.
Selmy was groping for an answer when he heard the sound of heavy footsteps. The door burst
inward, and Skahaz mo Kandaq stormed in with four Brazen Beasts behind him. When Grazhar tried to
block his path, he slammed the boy aside.

Ser Barristan was on his feet at once. What is it?
The trebuchets, the Shavepate growled. All six.
Galazza Galare rose. Thus does Yunkai make reply to your offers, ser. I warned you that you
would not like their answer.
They choose war, then. So be it. Ser Barristan felt oddly relieved. War he understood. If they
think they will break Meereen by throwing stones
Not stones. The old womans voice was full of grief, of fear. Corpses.
DAENERYS
The hill was a stony island in a sea of green.
It took Dany half the morning to climb down. By the time she reached the bottom she was
winded. Her muscles ached, and she felt as if she had the beginnings of a fever. The rocks had scraped
her hands raw. They are better than they were, though, she decided as she picked at a broken blister.
Her skin was pink and tender, and a pale milky fluid was leaking from her cracked palms, but her burns
were healing.
The hill loomed larger down here. Dany had taken to calling it Drag-onstone, after the ancient
citadel where shed been born. She had no memories of that Dragonstone, but she would not soon
forget this one. Scrub grass and thorny bushes covered its lower slopes; higher up a jagged tangle of
bare rock thrust steep and sudden into the sky. There, amidst broken boulders, razor-sharp ridges, and
needle spires, Drogon made his lair inside a shallow cave. He had dwelt there for some time, Dany had
realized when she first saw the hill. The air smelled of ash, every rock and tree in sight was scorched and
blackened, the ground strewn with burned and broken bones, yet it had been home to him.
Dany knew the lure of home.
Two days ago, climbing on a spire of rock, she had spied water to the south, a slender thread
that glittered briefly as the sun was going down. A stream, Dany decided. Small, but it would lead her to
a larger stream, and that stream would flow into some little river, and all the rivers in this part of the
world were vassals of the Skahazadhan. Once she found the Skahazadhan she need only follow it
downstream to Slavers Bay.
She would sooner have returned to Meereen on dragons wings, to be sure. But that was a
desire Drogon did not seem to share.
The dragonlords of old Valyria had controlled their mounts with binding spells and sorcerous
horns. Daenerys made do with a word and a whip. Mounted on the dragons back, she oft felt as if she

were learning to ride all over again. When she whipped her silver mare on her right flank the mare went
left, for a horses first instinct is to flee from danger. When she laid the whip across Drogons right side
he veered right, for a dragons first instinct is always to attack. Sometimes it did not seem to matter
where she struck him, though; sometimes he went where he would and took her with him. Neither whip
nor words could turn Drogon if he did not wish to be turned. The whip annoyed him more than it hurt
him, she had come to see; his scales had grown harder than horn.
And no matter how far the dragon flew each day, come nightfall some instinct drew him home
to Dragonstone. His home, not mine. Her home was back in Meereen, with her husband and her lover.
That was where she belonged, surely.
Keep walking. If I look back I am lost.
Memories walked with her. Clouds seen from above. Horses small as ants thundering through
the grass. A silver moon, almost close enough to touch. Rivers running bright and blue below,
glimmering in the sun. Will I ever see such sights again? On Drogons back she felt whole. Up in the sky
the woes of this world could not touch her. How could she abandon that?
It was time, though. A girl might spend her life at play, but she was a woman grown, a queen, a
wife, a mother to thousands. Her children had need of her. Drogon had bent before the whip, and so
must she. She had to don her crown again and return to her ebon bench and the arms of her noble
husband.
Hizdahr, of the tepid kisses.
The sun was hot this morning, the sky blue and cloudless. That was good. Danys clothes were
hardly more than rags, and offered little in the way of warmth. One of her sandals had slipped off during
her wild flight from Meereen and she had left the other up by Drogons cave, preferring to go barefoot
rather than half-shod. Her tokar and veils she had abandoned in the pit, and her linen undertunic had
never been made to withstand the hot days and cold nights of the Dothraki sea. Sweat and grass and
dirt had stained it, and Dany had torn a strip off the hem to make a bandage for her shin. I must look a
ragged thing, and starved, she thought, but if the days stay warm, I will not freeze.
Hers had been a lonely sojourn, and for most of it she had been hurt and hungry  yet despite it
all she had been strangely happy here. A few aches, an empty belly, chills by night  what does it matter
when you can fly? I would do it all again.
Jhiqui and Irri would be waiting atop her pyramid back in Meereen, she told herself. Her sweet
scribe Missandei as well, and all her little pages. They would bring her food, and she could bathe in the
pool beneath the persimmon tree. It would be good to feel clean again. Dany did not need a glass to
know that she was filthy.
She was hungry too. One morning she had found some wild onions growing halfway down the
south slope, and later that same day a leafy reddish vegetable that might have been some queer sort of
cabbage. Whatever it was, it had not made her sick. Aside from that, and one fish that she had caught in

the spring-fed pool outside of Drogons cave, she had survived as best she could on the dragons
leavings, on burned bones and chunks of smoking meat, half-charred and half-raw. She needed more,
she knew. One day she kicked at a cracked sheeps skull with the side of a bare foot and sent it bouncing
over the edge of the hill. And as she watched it tumble down the steep slope toward the sea of grass,
she realized she must follow.
Dany set off through the tall grass at a brisk pace. The earth felt warm between her toes. The
grass was as tall as she was. It never seemed so high when I was mounted on my silver, riding beside my
sun-and-stars at the head of his khalasar. As she walked, she tapped her thigh with the pitmasters whip.
That, and the rags on her back, were all she had taken from Meereen.
Though she walked through a green kingdom, it was not the deep rich green of summer. Even
here autumn made its presence felt, and winter would not be far behind. The grass was paler than she
remembered, a wan and sickly green on the verge of going yellow. After that would come brown. The
grass was dying.
Daenerys Targaryen was no stranger to the Dothraki sea, the great ocean of grass that stretched
from the forest of Qohor to the Mother of Mountains and the Womb of the World. She had seen it first
when she was still a girl, newly wed to Khal Drogo and on her way to Vaes Dothrak to be presented to
the crones of the dosh khaleen. The sight of all that grass stretching out before her had taken her breath
away. The sky was blue, the grass was green, and I was full of hope. Ser Jorah had been with her then,
her gruff old bear. Shed had Irri and Jhiqui and Doreah to care for her, her sun-and-stars to hold her in
the night, his child growing inside her. Rhaego. I was going to name him Rhaego, and the dosh khaleen
said he would be the Stallion Who Mounts the World. Not since those half-remembered days in Braavos
when she lived in the house with the red door had she been as happy.
But in the Red Waste, all her joy had turned to ashes. Her sun-and-stars had fallen from his
horse, the maegi Mirri Maz Duur had murdered Rhaego in her womb, and Dany had smothered the
empty shell of Khal Drogo with her own two hands. Afterward Drogos great khalasar had shattered. Ko
Pono named himself Khal Pono and took many riders with him, and many slaves as well. Ko Jhaqo
named himself Khal Jhaqo and rode off with even more. Mago, his bloodrider, raped and murdered
Eroeh, a girl Daenerys had once saved from him. Only the birth of her dragons amidst the fire and smoke
of Khal Drogos funeral pyre had spared Dany herself from being dragged back to Vaes Dothrak to live
out the remainder of her days amongst the crones of the dosh khaleen.
The fire burned away my hair, but elsewise it did not touch me. It had been the same in Daznaks
Pit. That much she could recall, though much of what followed was a haze. So many people, screaming
and shoving. She remembered rearing horses, a food cart spilling melons as it overturned. From below a
spear came flying, followed by a flight of crossbow bolts. One passed so close that Dany felt it brush her
cheek. Others skittered off Drogons scales, lodged between them, or tore through the membrane of his
wings. She remembered the dragon twisting beneath her, shuddering at the impacts, as she tried
desperately to cling to his scaled back. The wounds were smoking. Dany saw one of the bolts burst into
sudden flame. Another fell away, shaken loose by the beating of his wings. Below, she saw men whirling,

wreathed in flame, hands up in the air as if caught in the throes of some mad dance. A woman in a green
tokar reached for a weeping child, pulling him down into her arms to shield him from the flames. Dany
saw the color vividly, but not the womans face. People were stepping on her as they lay tangled on the
bricks. Some were on fire.
Then all of that had faded, the sounds dwindling, the people shrinking, the spears and arrows
falling back beneath them as Drogon clawed his way into the sky. Up and up and up hed borne her, high
above the pyramids and pits, his wings outstretched to catch the warm air rising from the citys sun
baked bricks. If I fall and die, it will still have been worth it, she had thought.
North they flew, beyond the river, Drogon gliding on torn and tattered wings through clouds
that whipped by like the banners of some ghostly army. Dany glimpsed the shores of Slavers Bay and
the old Valyrian road that ran beside it through sand and desolation until it vanished in the west. The
road home. Then there was nothing beneath them but grass rippling in the wind.
Was that first flight a thousand years ago? Sometimes it seemed as if it must be.
The sun grew hotter as it rose, and before long her head was pounding. Danys hair was growing
out again, but slowly. I need a hat, she said aloud. Up on Dragonstone she had tried to make one for
herself, weaving stalks of grass together as she had seen Dothraki women do during her time with
Drogo, but either she was using the wrong sort of grass or she simply lacked the necessary skill. Her hats
all fell to pieces in her hands. Try again, she told herself. You will do better the next time. You are the
blood of the dragon, you can make a hat. She tried and tried, but her last attempt had been no more
successful than her first.
It was afternoon by the time Dany found the stream she had glimpsed atop the hill. It was a rill,
a rivulet, a trickle, no wider than her arm  and her arm had grown thinner every day she spent on
Dragonstone. Dany scooped up a handful of water and splashed it on her face. When she cupped her
hands, her knuckles squished in the mud at the bottom of the stream. She might have wished for colder,
clearer water  but no, if she were going to pin her hopes on wishes, she would wish for rescue.
She still clung to the hope that someone would come after her. Ser Barristan might come
seeking her; he was the first of her Queensguard, sworn to defend her life with his own. And her
bloodriders were no strangers to the Dothraki sea, and their lives were bound to her own. Her husband,
the noble Hizdahr zo Loraq, might dispatch searchers. And Daario  Dany pictured him riding toward her
through the tall grass, smiling, his golden tooth gleaming with the last light of the setting sun.
Only Daario had been given to the Yunkaii, a hostage to ensure no harm came to the Yunkish
captains. Daario and Hero, Jhogo and Groleo, and three of Hizdahrs kin. By now, surely, all of her
hostages would have been released. But 
She wondered if her captains blades still hung upon the wall beside her bed, waiting for Daario
to return and claim them. I will leave my girls with you, he had said. Keep them safe for me, beloved.
And she wondered how much the Yunkaii knew about what her captain meant to her. She had asked

Ser Barristan that question the afternoon the hostages went forth. They will have heard the talk, he
had replied. Naharis may even have boasted of Your Graces  of your great  regard  for him. If you
will forgive my saying so, modesty is not one of the captains virtues. He takes great pride in his  his
swordsmanship.
He boasts of bedding me, you mean. But Daario would not have been so foolish as to make such
a boast amongst her enemies. It makes no matter. By now the Yunkaii will be marching home. That was
why she had done all that she had done. For peace.
She turned back the way shed come, to where Dragonstone rose above the grasslands like a
clenched fist. It looks so close. Ive been walking for hours, yet it still looks as if I could reach out and
touch it. It was not too late to go back. There were fish in the spring-fed pool by Drogons cave. She had
caught one her first day there, she might catch more. And there would be scraps, charred bones with
bits of flesh still on them, the remnants of Drogons kills.
No, Dany told herself. If I look back I am lost. She might live for years amongst the sunbaked
rocks of Dragonstone, riding Drogon by day and gnawing at his leavings every evenfall as the great grass
sea turned from gold to orange, but that was not the life she had been born to. So once again she
turned her back upon the distant hill and closed her ears to the song of flight and freedom that the wind
sang as it played amongst the hills stony ridges. The stream was trickling south by southeast, as near as
she could tell. She followed it. Take me to the river, that is all I ask of you. Take me to the river, and I will
do the rest.
The hours passed slowly. The stream bent this way and that, and Dany followed, beating time
upon her leg with the whip, trying not to think about how far she had to go, or the pounding in her
head, or her empty belly. Take one step. Take the next. Another step. Another. What else could she do?
It was quiet on her sea. When the wind blew the grass would sigh as the stalks brushed against
each other, whispering in a tongue that only gods could understand. Now and again the little stream
would gurgle where it flowed around a stone. Mud squished between her toes. Insects buzzed around
her, lazy dragonflies and glistening green wasps and stinging midges almost too small to see. She
swatted at them absently when they landed on her arms. Once she came upon a rat drinking from the
stream, but it fled when she appeared, scurrying between the stalks to vanish in the high grass.
Sometimes she heard birds singing. The sound made her belly rumble, but she had no nets to snare
them with, and so far she had not come on any nests. Once I dreamed of flying, she thought, and now
Ive flown, and dream of stealing eggs. That made her laugh. Men are mad and gods are madder, she
told the grass, and the grass murmured its agreement.
Thrice that day she caught sight of Drogon. Once he was so far off that he might have been an
eagle, slipping in and out of distant clouds, but Dany knew the look of him by now, even when he was no
more than a speck. The second time he passed before the sun, his black wings spread, and the world
darkened. The last time he flew right above her, so close she could hear the sound of his wings. For half
a heartbeat Dany thought that he was hunting her, but he flew on without taking any notice of her and
vanished somewhere in the east. Just as well, she thought.

Evening took her almost unawares. As the sun was gilding the distant spires of Dragonstone,
Dany stumbled onto a low stone wall, overgrown and broken. Perhaps it had been part of a temple, or
the hall of the village lord. More ruins lay beyond itan old well, and some circles in the grass that
marked the sites where hovels had once stood. They had been built of mud and straw, she judged, but
long years of wind and rain had worn them away to nothing. Dany found eight before the sun went
down, but there might have been more farther out, hidden in the grass.
The stone wall had endured better than the rest. Though it was nowhere more than three feet
high, the angle where it met another, lower wall still offered some shelter from the elements, and night
was coming on fast. Dany wedged herself into that corner, making a nest of sorts by tearing up handfuls
of the grass that grew around the ruins. She was very tired, and fresh blisters had appeared on both her
feet, including a matched set upon her pinky toes. It must be from the way I walk, she thought, giggling.
As the world darkened, Dany settled in and closed her eyes, but sleep refused to come. The
night was cold, the ground hard, her belly empty. She found herself thinking of Meereen, of Daario, her
love, and Hizdahr, her husband, of Irri and Jhiqui and sweet Missandei, Ser Barristan and Reznak and
Skahaz Shavepate. Do they fear me dead? I flew off on a dragons back. Will they think he ate me? She
wondered if Hizdahr was still king. His crown had come from her, could he hold it in her absence? He
wanted Drogon dead. I heard him. Kill it, he screamed, kill the beast, and the look upon his face was
lustful. And Strong Belwas had been on his knees, heaving and shuddering. Poison. It had to be poison.
The honeyed locusts. Hizdahr urged them on me, but Belwas ate them all. She had made Hizdahr her
king, taken him into her bed, opened the fighting pits for him, he had no reason to want her dead. Yet
who else could it have been? Reznak, her perfumed seneschal? The Yunkaii? The Sons of the Harpy?
Off in the distance, a wolf howled. The sound made her feel sad and lonely, but no less hungry.
As the moon rose above the grasslands, Dany slipped at last into a restless sleep.
She dreamed. All her cares fell away from her, and all her pains as well, and she seemed to float
upward into the sky. She was flying once again, spinning, laughing, dancing, as the stars wheeled around
her and whispered secrets in her ear. To go north, you must journey south. To reach the west, you
must go east. To go forward, you must go back. To touch the light you must pass beneath the shadow.
Quaithe? Dany called. Where are you, Quaithe?
Then she saw. Her mask is made of starlight. Remember who you are, Daenerys, the stars
whispered in a womans voice. The dragons know. Do you?
The next morning she woke stiff and sore and aching, with ants crawling on her arms and legs
and face. When she realized what they were, she kicked aside the stalks of dry brown grass that had
served as her bed and blanket and struggled to her feet. She had bites all over her, little red bumps,
itchy and inflamed. Where did all the ants come from? Dany brushed them from her arms and legs and
belly. She ran a hand across her stubbly scalp where her hair had burned away, and felt more ants on
her head, and one crawling down the back of her neck. She knocked them off and crushed them under
her bare feet. There were so many 

It turned out that their anthill was on the other side of her wall. She wondered how the ants had
managed to climb over it and find her. To them these tumbledown stones must loom as huge as the
Wall of Westeros. The biggest wall in all the world, her brother Viserys used to say, as proud as if hed
built it himself.
Viserys told her tales of knights so poor that they had to sleep beneath the ancient hedges that
grew along the byways of the Seven Kingdoms. Dany would have given much and more for a nice thick
hedge. Preferably one without an anthill.
The sun was only just coming up. A few bright stars lingered in the cobalt sky. Perhaps one of
them is Khal Drogo, sitting on his fiery stallion in the night lands and smiling down on me. Dragonstone
was still visible above the grasslands. It looks so close. I must be leagues away by now, but it looks as if I
could be back in an hour. She wanted to lie back down, close her eyes, and give herself up to sleep. No. I
must keep going. The stream. Just follow the stream.
Dany took a moment to make certain of her directions. It would not do to walk the wrong way
and lose her stream. My friend, she said aloud. If I stay close to my friend I wont get lost. She would
have slept beside the water if she dared, but there were animals who came down to the stream to drink
at night. She had seen their tracks. Dany would make a poor meal for a wolf or lion, but even a poor
meal was better than none.
Once she was certain which way was south, she counted off her paces. The stream appeared at
eight. Dany cupped her hands to drink. The water made her belly cramp, but cramps were easier to bear
than thirst. She had no other drink but the morning dew that glistened on the tall grass, and no food at
all unless she cared to eat the grass. I could try eating ants. The little yellow ones were too small to
provide much in the way of nourishment, but there were red ants in the grass, and those were bigger. I
am lost at sea, she said as she limped along beside her meandering rivulet, so perhaps Ill find some
crabs, or a nice fat fish. Her whip slapped softly against her thigh, wap wap wap. One step at a time,
and the stream would see her home.
Just past midday she came upon a bush growing by the stream, its twisted limbs covered with
hard green berries. Dany squinted at them suspiciously, then plucked one from a branch and nibbled at
it. Its flesh was tart and chewy, with a bitter aftertaste that seemed familiar to her. In the khalasar,
they used berries like these to flavor roasts, she decided. Saying it aloud made her more certain of it.
Her belly rumbled, and Dany found herself picking berries with both hands and tossing them into her
mouth.
An hour later, her stomach began to cramp so badly that she could not go on. She spent the rest
of that day retching up green slime. If I stay here, I will die. I may be dying now. Would the horse god of
the Dothraki part the grass and claim her for his starry khalasar, so she might ride the night-lands with
Khal Drogo? In Westeros the dead of House Targaryen were given to the flames, but who would light her
pyre here? My flesh will feed the wolves and carrion crows, she thought sadly, and worms will burrow
through my womb. Her eyes went back to Dragonstone. It looked smaller. She could see smoke rising
from its wind-carved summit, miles away. Drogon has returned from hunting.

Sunset found her squatting in the grass, groaning. Every stool was looser than the one before,
and smelled fouler. By the time the moon came up she was shitting brown water. The more she drank,
the more she shat, but the more she shat, the thirstier she grew, and her thirst sent her crawling to the
stream to suck up more water. When she closed her eyes at last, Dany did not know whether she would
be strong enough to open them again.
She dreamt of her dead brother.
Viserys looked just as he had the last time shed seen him. His mouth was twisted in anguish, his
hair was burnt, and his face was black and smoking where the molten gold had run down across his
brow and cheeks and into his eyes.
You are dead, Dany said.
Murdered. Though his lips never moved, somehow she could hear his voice, whispering in her
ear. You never mourned me, sister. It is hard to die unmourned.
I loved you once.
Once, he said, so bitterly it made her shudder. You were supposed to be my wife, to bear me
children with silver hair and purple eyes, to keep the blood of the dragon pure. I took care of you. I
taught you who you were. I fed you. I sold our mothers crown to keep you fed.
You hurt me. You frightened me.
Only when you woke the dragon. I loved you. You sold me. You betrayed me.
No. You were the betrayer. You turned against me, against your own blood. They cheated me.
Your horsey husband and his stinking savages. They were cheats and liars. They promised me a golden
crown and gave me this. He touched the molten gold that was creeping down his face, and smoke rose
from his finger.
You could have had your crown, Dany told him. My sun-and-stars would have won it for you
if only you had waited.
I waited long enough. I waited my whole life. I was their king, their rightful king. They laughed at
me.
You should have stayed in Pentos with Magister Illyrio. Khal Drogo had to present me to the
dosh khaleen, but you did not have to ride with us. That was your choice. Your mistake.
Do you want to wake the dragon, you stupid little whore? Drogos khalasar was mine. I bought
them from him, a hundred thousand screamers. I paid for them with your maidenhead.
You never understood. Dothraki do not buy and sell. They give gifts and receive them. If you
had waited 

I did wait. For my crown, for my throne, for you. All those years, and all I ever got was a pot of
molten gold. Why did they give the dragons eggs to you? They should have been mine. If Id had a
dragon, I would have taught the world the meaning of our words. Viserys began to laugh, until his jaw
fell away from his face, smoking, and blood and molten gold ran from his mouth.
When she woke, gasping, her thighs were slick with blood.
For a moment she did not realize what it was. The world had just begun to lighten, and the tall
grass rustled softly in the wind. No, please, let me sleep some more. Im so tired. She tried to burrow
back beneath the pile of grass she had torn up when she went to sleep. Some of the stalks felt wet. Had
it rained again? She sat up, afraid that she had soiled herself as she slept. When she brought her fingers
to her face, she could smell the blood on them. Am I dying? Then she saw the pale crescent moon,
floating high above the grass, and it came to her that this was no more than her moon blood.
If she had not been so sick and scared, that might have come as a relief. Instead she began to
shiver violently. She rubbed her fingers through the dirt, and grabbed a handful of grass to wipe
between her legs. The dragon does not weep. She was bleeding, but it was only womans blood. The
moon is still a crescent, though. How can that be? She tried to remember the last time she had bled. The
last full moon? The one before? The one before that? No, it cannot have been so long as that. I am the
blood of the dragon, she told the grass, aloud.
Once, the grass whispered back, until you chained your dragons in the dark.
Drogon killed a little girl. Her name was  her name  Dany could not recall the childs name.
That made her so sad that she would have cried if all her tears had not been burned away. I will never
have a little girl. I was the Mother of Dragons.
Aye, the grass said, but you turned against your children.
Her belly was empty, her feet sore and blistered, and it seemed to her that the cramping had
grown worse. Her guts were full of writhing snakes biting at her bowels. She scooped up a handful of
mud and water in trembling hands. By midday the water would be tepid, but in the chill of dawn it was
almost cool and helped her keep her eyes open. As she splashed her face, she saw fresh blood on her
thighs. The ragged hem of her under-tunic was stained with it. The sight of so much red frightened her.
Moon blood, its only my moon blood, but she did not remember ever having such a heavy flow. Could it
be the water? If it was the water, she was doomed. She had to drink or die of thirst.
Walk, Dany commanded herself. Follow the stream and it will take you to the Skahazadhan.
Thats where Daario will find you. But it took all her strength just to get back to her feet, and when she
did all she could do was stand there, fevered and bleeding. She raised her eyes to the empty blue sky,
squinting at the sun. Half the morning gone already, she realized, dismayed. She made herself take a
step, and then another, and then she was walking once again, following the little stream.
The day grew warmer, and the sun beat down upon her head and the burnt remnants of her
hair. Water splashed against the soles of her feet. She was walking in the stream. How long had she

been doing that? The soft brown mud felt good between her toes and helped to soothe her blisters. In
the stream or out of it, I must keep walking. Water flows downhill. The stream will take me to the river,
and the river will take me home.
Except it wouldnt, not truly.
Meereen was not her home, and never would be. It was a city of strange men with strange gods
and stranger hair, of slavers wrapped in fringed tokars, where grace was earned through whoring,
butchery was art, and dog was a delicacy. Meereen would always be the Harpys city, and Daenerys
could not be a harpy.
Never, said the grass, in the gruff tones of Jorah Mormont. You were warned, Your Grace. Let
this city be, I said. Your war is in Westeros, I told you.
The voice was no more than a whisper, yet somehow Dany felt that he was walking just behind
her. My bear, she thought, my old sweet bear, who loved me and betrayed me. She had missed him so.
She wanted to see his ugly face, to wrap her arms around him and press herself against his chest, but
she knew that if she turned around Ser Jorah would be gone. I am dreaming, she said. A waking
dream, a walking dream. I am alone and lost.
Lost, because you lingered, in a place that you were never meant to be, murmured Ser Jorah, as
softly as the wind. Alone, because you sent me from your side.
You betrayed me. You informed on me, for gold.
For home. Home was all I ever wanted. And me. You wanted me. Dany had seen it in his eyes.
I did, the grass whispered, sadly. You kissed me. I never said you could, but you did. You sold
me to my enemies, but you meant it when you kissed me.
I gave you good counsel. Save your spears and swords for the Seven Kingdoms, I told you. Leave
Meereen to the Meereenese and go west, I said. You would not listen.
I had to take Meereen or see my children starve along the march. Dany could still see the trail
of corpses she had left behind her crossing the Red Waste. It was not a sight she wished to see again. I
had to take Meereen to feed my people.
You took Meereen, he told her, yet still you lingered. To be a queen.
You are a queen, her bear said. In Westeros. It is such a long way, she complained. I was tired,
Jorah. I was weary of war. I wanted to rest, to laugh, to plant trees and see them grow. I am only a
young girl.
No. You are the blood of the dragon. The whispering was growing fainter, as if Ser Jorah were
falling farther behind. Dragons plant no trees. Remember that. Remember who you are, what you were
made to be. Remember your words.

Fire and Blood, Daenerys told the swaying grass.
A stone turned under her foot. She stumbled to one knee and cried out in pain, hoping against
hope that her bear would gather her up and help her to her feet. When she turned her head to look for
him, all she saw was trickling brown water  and the grass, still moving slightly. The wind, she told
herself, the wind shakes the stalks and makes them sway. Only no wind was blowing. The sun was
overhead, the world still and hot. Midges swarmed in the air, and a dragonfly floated over the stream,
darting here and there. And the grass was moving when it had no cause to move.
She fumbled in the water, found a stone the size of her fist, pulled it from the mud. It was a poor
weapon but better than an empty hand. From the corner of her eye Dany saw the grass move again, off
to her right. The grass swayed and bowed low, as if before a king, but no king appeared to her. The
world was green and empty. The world was green and silent. The world was yellow, dying. I should get
up, she told herself. I have to walk. I have to follow the stream.
Through the grass came a soft silvery tinkling.
Bells, Dany thought, smiling, remembering Khal Drogo, her sunand-stars, and the bells he
braided into his hair. When the sun rises in the west and sets in the east, when the seas go dry and
mountains blow in the wind like leaves, when my womb quickens again and I bear a living child, Khal
Drogo will return to me.
But none of those things had happened. Bells, Dany thought again. Her bloodriders had found
her. Aggo, she whispered. Jhogo. Rakharo. Might Daario have come with them?
The green sea opened. A rider appeared. His braid was black and shiny, his skin as dark as
burnished copper, his eyes the shape of bitter almonds. Bells sang in his hair. He wore a medallion belt
and painted vest, with an arakh on one hip and a whip on the other. A hunting bow and a quiver of
arrows were slung from his saddle.
One rider, and alone. A scout. He was one who rode before the khalasar to find the game and
the good green grass, and sniff out foes wherever they might hide. If he found her there, he would kill
her, rape her, or enslave her. At best, he would send her back to the crones of the dosh khaleen, where
good khaleesi were supposed to go when their khals had died.
He did not see her, though. The grass concealed her, and he was looking elsewhere. Dany
followed his eyes, and there the shadow flew, with wings spread wide. The dragon was a mile off, and
yet the scout stood frozen until his stallion began to whicker in fear. Then he woke as if from a dream,
wheeled his mount about, and raced off through the tall grass at a gallop.
Dany watched him go. When the sound of his hooves had faded away to silence, she began to
shout. She called until her voice was hoarse  and Drogon came, snorting plumes of smoke. The grass
bowed down before him. Dany leapt onto his back. She stank of blood and sweat and fear, but none of
that mattered. To go forward I must go back, she said. Her bare legs tightened around the dragons
neck. She kicked him, and Drogon threw himself into the sky. Her whip was gone, so she used her hands

and feet and turned him north by east, the way the scout had gone. Drogon went willingly enough;
perhaps he smelled the riders fear.
In a dozen heartbeats they were past the Dothraki, as he galloped far below. To the right and
left, Dany glimpsed places where the grass was burned and ashen. Drogon has come this way before,
she realized. Like a chain of grey islands, the marks of his hunting dotted the green grass sea.
A vast herd of horses appeared below them. There were riders too, a score or more, but they
turned and fled at the first sight of the dragon. The horses broke and ran when the shadow fell upon
them, racing through the grass until their sides were white with foam, tearing the ground with their
hooves  but as swift as they were, they could not fly. Soon one horse began to lag behind the others.
The dragon descended on him, roaring, and all at once the poor beast was aflame, yet somehow he kept
on running, screaming with every step, until Drogon landed on him and broke his back. Dany clutched
the dragons neck with all her strength to keep from sliding off.
The carcass was too heavy for him to bear back to his lair, so Drogon consumed his kill there,
tearing at the charred flesh as the grasses burned around them, the air thick with drifting smoke and the
smell of burnt horsehair. Dany, starved, slid off his back and ate with him, ripping chunks of smoking
meat from the dead horse with bare, burned hands. In Meereen I was a queen in silk, nibbling on stuffed
dates and honeyed lamb, she remembered. What would my noble husband think if he could see me
now? Hizdahr would be horrified, no doubt. But Daario 
Daario would laugh, carve off a hunk of horsemeat with his arakh, and squat down to eat beside
her.
As the western sky turned the color of a blood bruise, she heard the sound of approaching
horses. Dany rose, wiped her hands on her ragged undertunic, and went to stand beside her dragon.
That was how Khal Jhaqo found her, when half a hundred mounted warriors emerged from the
drifting smoke.
EPILOGUE
I am no traitor, the Knight of Griffins Roost declared. I am King Tommens man, and yours.
A steady drip-drip-drip punctuated his words, as snowmelt ran off his cloak to puddle on the
floor. The snow had been falling on Kings Landing most of the night; outside the drifts were ankle deep.
Ser Kevan Lannister pulled his cloak about himself more closely. So you say, ser. Words are wind.
Then let me prove the truth of them with my sword. The light of the torches made a fiery
blaze of Ronnet Conningtons long red hair and beard. Send me against my uncle, and I will bring you
back his head, and the head of this false dragon too.

Lannister spearmen in crimson cloaks and lion-crested halfhelms stood along the west wall of
the throne room. Tyrell guards in green cloaks faced them from the opposite wall. The chill in the throne
room was palpable. Though neither Queen Cersei nor Queen Margaery was amongst them, their
presence could be felt poisoning the air, like ghosts at a feast.
Behind the table where the five members of the kings small council were seated, the Iron
Throne crouched like some great black beast, its barbs and claws and blades half-shrouded in shadow.
Kevan Lannister could feel it at his back, an itch between the shoulder blades. It was easy to imagine old
King Aerys perched up there, bleeding from some fresh cut, glowering down. But today the throne was
empty. He had seen no reason for Tommen to join them. Kinder to let the boy remain with his mother.
The Seven only knew how long mother and son might have together before Cerseis trial  and possibly
her execution.
Mace Tyrell was speaking. We shall deal with your uncle and his feigned boy in due time. The
new Kings Hand was seated on an oaken throne carved in the shape of a hand, an absurd vanity his
lordship had produced the day Ser Kevan agreed to grant him the office he coveted. You will bide here
until we are ready to march. Then you shall have the chance to prove your loyalty.
Ser Kevan took no issue with that. Escort Ser Ronnet back to his chambers, he said. And see
that he remains there went unspoken. However loud his protestations, the Knight of Griffins Roost
remained suspect. Supposedly the sellswords who had landed in the south were being led by one of his
own blood.
As the echoes of Conningtons footsteps faded away, Grand Maester Pycelle gave a ponderous
shake of his head. His uncle once stood just where the boy was standing now and told King Aerys how
he would deliver him the head of Robert Baratheon.
That is how it is when a man grows as old as Pycelle. Everything you see or hear reminds you of
something you saw or heard when you were young. How many men-at-arms accompanied Ser Ronnet
to the city? Ser Kevan asked.
Twenty, said Lord Randyll Tarly, and most of them Gregor Cleganes old lot. Your nephew
Jaime gave them to Connington. To rid himself of them, Id wager. They had not been in Maidenpool a
day before one killed a man and another was accused of rape. I had to hang the one and geld the other.
If it were up to me, I would send them all to the Nights Watch, and Connington with them. The Wall is
where such scum belong.
A dog takes after its master, declared Mace Tyrell. Black cloaks would suit them, I agree. I will
not suffer such men in the city watch. A hundred of his own Highgarden men had been added to the
gold cloaks, yet plainly his lordship meant to resist any balancing infusion of westermen.
The more I give him, the more he wants. Kevan Lannister was beginning to understand why
Cersei had grown so resentful of the Tyrells. But this was not the moment to provoke an open quarrel.
Randyll Tarly and Mace Tyrell had both brought armies to Kings Landing, whilst the best part of the

strength of House Lannister remained in the riverlands, fast melting away. The Mountains men were
always fighters, he said in a conciliatory tone, and we may have need of every sword against these
sellswords. If this truly is the Golden Company, as Qyburns whisperers insist
Call them what you will, said Randyll Tarly. They are still no more than adventurers.
Perhaps, Ser Kevan said. But the longer we ignore these adventurers, the stronger they grow.
We have had a map prepared, a map of the incursions. Grand Maester?
The map was beautiful, painted by a masters hand on a sheet of the finest vellum, so large it
covered the table. Here. Pycelle pointed with a spotted hand. Where the sleeve of his robe rode up, a
flap of pale flesh could be seen dangling beneath his forearm. Here and here. All along the coast, and
on the islands. Tarth, the Stepstones, even Estermont. And now we have reports that Connington is
moving on Storms End.
If it is Jon Connington, said Randyll Tarly. Storms End. Lord Mace Tyrell grunted the words.
He cannot take Storms End. Not if he were Aegon the Conqueror. And if he does, what of it? Stannis
holds it now. Let the castle pass from one pretender to another, why should that trouble us? I shall
recapture it after my daughters innocence is proved.
How can you recapture it when you have never captured it to begin with? I understand, my
lord, but
Tyrell did not let him finish. These charges against my daughter are filthy lies. I ask again, why
must we play out this mummers farce? Have King Tommen declare my daughter innocent, ser, and put
an end to the foolishness here and now.
Do that, and the whispers will follow Margaery the rest of her life. No man doubts your
daughters innocence, my lord, Ser Kevan lied, but His High Holiness insists upon a trial.
Lord Randyll snorted. What have we become, when kings and high lords must dance to the
twittering of sparrows?
We have foes on every hand, Lord Tarly, Ser Kevan reminded him. Stannis in the north,
ironmen in the west, sellswords in the south. Defy the High Septon, and we will have blood running in
the gutters of Kings Landing as well. If we are seen to be going against the gods, it will only drive the
pious into the arms of one or the other of these would-be usurpers.
Mace Tyrell remained unmoved. Once Paxter Redwyne sweeps the ironmen from the seas, my
sons will retake the Shields. The snows will do for Stannis, or Bolton will. As for Connington 
If it is him, Lord Randyll said.  as for Connington, Tyrell repeated, what victories has he
ever won that we should fear him? He could have ended Roberts Rebellion at Stoney Sept. He failed.
Just as the Golden Company has always failed. Some may rush to join them, aye. The realm is well rid of
such fools.

Ser Kevan wished that he could share his certainty. He had known Jon Connington, slightlya
proud youth, the most headstrong of the gaggle of young lordlings who had gathered around Prince
Rhaegar Targaryen, competing for his royal favor. Arrogant, but able and energetic. That, and his skill at
arms, was why Mad King Aerys had named him Hand. Old Lord Merryweathers inaction had allowed the
rebellion to take root and spread, and Aerys wanted someone young and vigorous to match Roberts
own youth and vigor. Too soon, Lord Tywin Lannister had declared when word of the kings choice had
reached Casterly Rock. Connington is too young, too bold, too eager for glory.
The Battle of the Bells had proved the truth of that. Ser Kevan had expected that afterward
Aerys would have no choice but to summon Tywin once more  but the Mad King had turned to the
Lords Chelsted and Rossart instead, and paid for it with life and crown. That was all so long ago, though.
If this is indeed Jon Connington, he will be a different man. Older, harder, more seasoned  more
dangerous. Connington may have more than the Golden Company. It is said he has a Targaryen
pretender.
A feigned boy is what he has, said Randyll Tarly. That may be. Or not. Kevan Lannister had
been here, in this very hall when Tywin had laid the bodies of Prince Rhaegars children at the foot of
the Iron Throne, wrapped up in crimson cloaks. The girl had been recognizably the Princess Rhaenys, but
the boy  a faceless horror of bone and brain and gore, a few hanks of fair hair. None of us looked long.
Tywin said that it was Prince Aegon, and we took him at his word. We have these tales coming from the
east as well. A second Targaryen, and one whose blood no man can question. Daenerys Stormborn.
As mad as her father, declared Lord Mace Tyrell.
That would be the same father that Highgarden and House Tyrell supported to the bitter end and
well beyond. Mad she may be, Ser Kevan said, but with so much smoke drifting west, surely there
must be some fire burning in the east.
Grand Maester Pycelle bobbed his head. Dragons. These same stories have reached Oldtown.
Too many to discount. A silver-haired queen with three dragons.
At the far end of the world, said Mace Tyrell. Queen of Slavers Bay, aye. She is welcome to
it.
On that we can agree, Ser Kevan said, but the girl is of the blood of Aegon the Conqueror,
and I do not think she will be content to remain in Meereen forever. If she should reach these shores
and join her strength to Lord Connington and this prince of his, feigned or no  we must destroy
Connington and his pretender now, before Daenerys Stormborn can come west.
Mace Tyrell crossed his arms. I mean to do just that, ser. After the trials.
Sellswords fight for coin, declared Grand Maester Pycelle. With enough gold, we might
persuade the Golden Company to hand over Lord Connington and the pretender.

Aye, if we had gold, Ser Harys Swyft said. Alas, my lords, our vaults contain only rats and
roaches. I have written again to the Myrish bankers. If they will agree to make good the crowns debt to
the Braavosi and extend us a new loan, mayhaps we will not have to raise the taxes. Else-wise
The magisters of Pentos have been known to lend money as well, said Ser Kevan. Try them.
The Pentoshi were even less like to be of help than the Myrish money changers, but the effort must be
made. Unless a new source of coin could be found, or the Iron Bank persuaded to relent, he would have
no choice but to pay the crowns debts with Lannister gold. He dare not resort to new taxes, not with
the Seven Kingdoms crawling with rebellion. Half the lords in the realm could not tell taxation from
tyranny, and would bolt to the nearest usurper in a heartbeat if it would save them a clipped copper. If
that fails, you may well need to go to Braavos, to treat with the Iron Bank yourself.
Ser Harys quailed. Must I?
You are the master of coin, Lord Randyll said sharply. I am. The puff of white hair at the end
of Swyfts chin quivered in outrage. Must I remind my lord, this trouble is not of my doing? And not all
of us have had the opportunity to refill our coffers with the plunder of Maidenpool and Dragonstone.
I resent your implication, Swyft, Mace Tyrell said, bristling. No wealth was found on
Dragonstone, I promise you. My sons men have searched every inch of that damp and dreary island and
turned up not so much as a single gemstone or speck of gold. Nor any sign of this fabled hoard of dragon
eggs.
Kevan Lannister had seen Dragonstone with his own eyes. He doubted very much that Loras
Tyrell had searched every inch of that ancient stronghold. The Valyrians had raised it, after all, and all
their works stank of sorcery. And Ser Loras was young, prone to all the rash judgments of youth, and had
been grievously wounded storming the castle besides. But it would not do to remind Tyrell that his
favorite son was fallible. If there was wealth on Dragonstone, Stannis would have found it, he
declared.
Let us move along, my lords. We have two queens to try for high treason, you may recall. My
niece has elected trial by battle, she informs me. Ser Robert Strong will champion her.
The silent giant. Lord Randyll grimaced. Tell me, ser, where did this man come from?
demanded Mace Tyrell. Why have we never heard his name before? He does not speak, he will not
show his face, he is never seen without his armor. Do we know for a certainty that he is even a knight?
We do not even know if hes alive. Meryn Trant claimed that Strong took neither food nor drink,
and Boros Blount went so far as to say he had never seen the man use the privy. Why should he? Dead
men do not shit. Kevan Lannister had a strong suspicion of just who this Ser Robert really was beneath
that gleaming white armor. A suspicion that Mace Tyrell and Randyll Tarly no doubt shared. Whatever
the face hidden behind Strongs helm, it must remain hidden for now. The silent giant was his nieces
only hope. And pray that he is as formidable as he appears.

But Mace Tyrell could not seem to see beyond the threat to his own daughter. His Grace
named Ser Robert to the Kingsguard, Ser Kevan reminded him, and Qyburn vouches for the man as
well. Be that as it may, we need Ser Robert to prevail, my lords. If my niece is proved guilty of these
treasons, the legitimacy of her children will be called into question. If Tommen ceases to be a king,
Margaery will cease to be a queen. He let Tyrell chew on that a moment. Whatever Cersei may have
done, she is still a daughter of the Rock, of mine own blood. I will not let her die a traitors death, but I
have made sure to draw her fangs. All her guards have been dismissed and replaced with my own men.
In place of her former ladies-in-waiting, she will henceforth be attended by a septa and three novices
selected by the High Septon. She is to have no further voice in the governance of the realm, nor in
Tommens education. I mean to return her to Casterly Rock after the trial and see that she remains
there. Let that suffice.
The rest he left unsaid. Cersei was soiled goods now, her power at an end. Every bakers boy and
beggar in the city had seen her in her shame and every tart and tanner from Flea Bottom to Pisswater
Bend had gazed upon her nakedness, their eager eyes crawling over her breasts and belly and womans
parts. No queen could expect to rule again after that. In gold and silk and emeralds Cersei had been a
queen, the next thing to a goddess; naked, she was only human, an aging woman with stretch marks on
her belly and teats that had begun to sag  as the shrews in the crowds had been glad to point out to
their husbands and lovers. Better to live shamed than die proud, Ser Kevan told himself. My niece will
make no further mischief, he promised Mace Tyrell. You have my word on that, my lord.
Tyrell gave a grudging nod. As you say. My Margaery prefers to be tried by the Faith, so the
whole realm can bear witness to her innocence.
If your daughter is as innocent as youd have us believe, why must you have your army present
when she faces her accusers? Ser Kevan might have asked. Soon, I hope, he said instead, before
turning to Grand Maester Pycelle. Is there aught else?
The Grand Maester consulted his papers. We should address the Rosby inheritance. Six claims
have been put forth
We can settle Rosby at some later date. What else?
Preparations should be made for Princess Myrcella.
This is what comes of dealing with the Dornish, Mace Tyrell said. Surely a better match can
be found for the girl?
Such as your own son Willas, perhaps? Her disfigured by one Dornishman, him crippled by
another? No doubt, Ser Kevan said, but we have enemies enough without offending Dorne. If Doran
Martell were to join his strength to Conningtons in support of this feigned dragon, things could go very
ill for all of us.
Mayhaps we can persuade our Dornish friends to deal with Lord Connington, Ser Harys Swyft
said with an irritating titter. That would save a deal of blood and trouble.

It would, Ser Kevan said wearily. Time to put an end to this. Thank you, my lords. Let us
convene again five days hence. After Cerseis trial.
As you say. May the Warrior lend strength to Ser Roberts arms. The words were grudging, the
dip of the chin Mace Tyrell gave the Lord Regent the most cursory of bows. But it was something, and
for that much Ser Kevan Lannister was grateful.
Randyll Tarly left the hall with his liege lord, their green-cloaked spear-men right behind them.
Tarly is the real danger, Ser Kevan reflected as he watched their departure. A narrow man, but
iron-willed and shrewd, and as good a soldier as the Reach could boast. But how do I win him to our
side?
Lord Tyrell loves me not, Grand Maester Pycelle said in gloomy tones when the Hand had
departed. This matter of the moon tea  I would never have spoken of such, but the Queen Dowager
commanded me! If it please the Lord Regent, I would sleep more soundly if you could lend me some of
your guards.
Lord Tyrell might take that amiss.
Ser Harys Swyft tugged at his chin beard. I am in need of guards myself. These are perilous
times.
Aye, thought Kevan Lannister, and Pycelle is not the only council member our Hand would like to
replace. Mace Tyrell had his own candidate for lord treasurer: his uncle, Lord Seneschal of Highgarden,
whom men called Garth the Gross. The last thing I need is another Tyrell on the small council. He was
already outnumbered. Ser Harys was his wifes father, and Pycelle could be counted upon as well. But
Tarly was sworn to Highgarden, as was Paxter Redwyne, lord admiral and master of ships, presently
sailing his fleet around Dorne to deal with Euron Greyjoys ironmen. Once Redwyne returned to Kings
Landing, the council would stand at three and three, Lannister and Tyrell.
The seventh voice would be the Dornishwoman now escorting Myrcella home. The Lady Nym.
But no lady, if even half of what Qyburn reports is true. A bastard daughter of the Red Viper, near as
notorious as her father and intent on claiming the council seat that Prince Oberyn himself had occupied
so briefly. Ser Kevan had not yet seen fit to inform Mace Tyrell of her coming. The Hand, he knew, would
not be pleased. The man we need is Littlefinger. Petyr Baelish had a gift for conjuring dragons from the
air.
Hire the Mountains men, Ser Kevan suggested. Red Ronnet will have no further use for
them. He did not think that Mace Tyrell would be so clumsy as to try to murder either Pycelle or Swyft,
but if guards made them feel safer, let them have guards.
The three men walked together from the throne room. Outside the snow was swirling round the
outer ward, a caged beast howling to be free. Have you ever felt such cold? asked Ser Harys.

The time to speak of the cold, said Grand Maester Pycelle, is not when we are standing out in
it. He made his slow way across the outer ward, back to his chambers.
The others lingered for a moment on the throne room steps. I put no faith in these Myrish
bankers, Ser Kevan told his good-father. You had best prepare to go to Braavos.
Ser Harys did not look happy at the prospect. If I must. But I say again, this trouble is not of my
doing.
No. It was Cersei who decided that the Iron Bank would wait for their due. Should I send her to
Braavos?
Ser Harys blinked. Her Grace  that  that 
Ser Kevan rescued him. That was a jape. A bad one. Go and find a warm fire. I mean to do the
same. He yanked his gloves on and set off across the yard, leaning hard into the wind as his cloak
snapped and swirled behind him.
The dry moat surrounding Maegors Holdfast was three feet deep in snow, the iron spikes that
lined it glistening with frost. The only way in or out of Maegors was across the drawbridge that spanned
that moat. A knight of the Kingsguard was always posted at its far end. Tonight the duty had fallen to Ser
Meryn Trant. With Balon Swann hunting the rogue knight Darkstar down in Dorne, Loras Tyrell gravely
wounded on Dragon-stone, and Jaime vanished in the riverlands, only four of the White Swords
remained in Kings Landing, and Ser Kevan had thrown Osmund Kettleblack (and his brother Osfryd) into
the dungeon within hours of Cerseis confessing that she had taken both men as lovers. That left only
Trant, the feeble Boros Blount, and Qyburns mute monster Robert Strong to protect the young king and
royal family.
I will need to find some new swords for the Kingsguard. Tommen should have seven good
knights about him. In the past the Kingsguard had served for life, but that had not stopped Joffrey from
dismissing Ser Barristan Selmy to make a place for his dog, Sandor Clegane. Kevan could make use of
that precedent. I could put Lancel in a white cloak, he reflected. There is more honor in that than he will
ever find in the Warriors Sons.
Kevan Lannister hung his snow-sodden cloak inside his solar, pulled off his boots, and
commanded his serving man to fetch some fresh wood for his fire. A cup of mulled wine would go
down well, he said as he settled by the hearth. See to it.
The fire soon thawed him, and the wine warmed his insides nicely. It also made him sleepy, so
he dare not drink another cup. His day was far from done. He had reports to read, letters to write. And
supper with Cersei and the king. His niece had been subdued and submissive since her walk of
atonement, thank the gods. The novices who attended her reported that she spent a third of her waking
hours with her son, another third in prayer, and the rest in her tub. She was bathing four or five times a
day, scrubbing herself with horsehair brushes and strong lye soap, as if she meant to scrape her skin off.

She will never wash the stain away, no matter how hard she scrubs. Ser Kevan remembered the
girl she once had been, so full of life and mischief. And when shed flowered, ahhhh  had there ever
been a maid so sweet to look upon? If Aerys had agreed to marry her to Rhaegar, how many deaths
might have been avoided? Cersei could have given the prince the sons he wanted, lions with purple eyes
and silver manes  and with such a wife, Rhaegar might never have looked twice at Lyanna Stark. The
northern girl had a wild beauty, as he recalled, though however bright a torch might burn it could never
match the rising sun.
But it did no good to brood on lost battles and roads not taken. That was a vice of old done men.
Rhaegar had wed Elia of Dorne, Lyanna Stark had died, Robert Baratheon had taken Cersei to bride, and
here they were. And tonight his own road would take him to his nieces chambers and face-to-face with
Cersei.
I have no reason to feel guilty, Ser Kevan told himself. Tywin would understand that, surely. It
was his daughter who brought shame down on our name, not I. What I did I did for the good of House
Lannister.
It was not as if his brother had never done the same. In their fathers final years, after their
mothers passing, their sire had taken the comely daughter of a candlemaker as mistress. It was not
unknown for a widowed lord to keep a common girl as bedwarmer  but Lord Tytos soon began seating
the woman beside him in the hall, showering her with gifts and honors, even asking her views on
matters of state. Within a year she was dismissing servants, ordering about his household knights, even
speaking for his lordship when he was indisposed. She grew so influential that it was said about
Lannisport that any man who wished for his petition to be heard should kneel before her and speak
loudly to her lap  for Tytos Lannisters ear was between his ladys legs. She had even taken to wearing
their mothers jewels.
Until the day their lord fathers heart had burst in his chest as he was ascending a steep flight of
steps to her bed, that is. All the self-seekers who had named themselves her friends and cultivated her
favor had abandoned her quickly enough when Tywin had her stripped naked and paraded through
Lannisport to the docks, like a common whore. Though no man laid a hand on her, that walk spelled the
end of her power. Surely Tywin would never have dreamed that same fate awaited his own golden
daughter.
It had to be, Ser Kevan muttered over the last of his wine. His High Holiness had to be
appeased. Tommen needed the Faith behind him in the battles to come. And Cersei  the golden child
had grown into a vain, foolish, greedy woman. Left to rule, she would have ruined Tommen as she had
Joffrey.
Outside the wind was rising, clawing at the shutters of his chamber. Ser Kevan pushed himself to
his feet. Time to face the lioness in her den. We have pulled her claws. Jaime, though  But no, he would
not brood on that.

He donned an old, well-worn doublet, in case his niece had a mind to throw another cup of wine
in his face, but he left his sword belt hanging on the back of his chair. Only the knights of the Kingsguard
were permitted swords in Tommens presence.
Ser Boros Blount was in attendance on the boy king and his mother when Ser Kevan entered the
royal chambers. Blount wore enameled scale, white cloak, and halfhelm. He did not look well. Of late
Boros had grown notably heavier about the face and belly, and his color was not good. And he was
leaning against the wall behind him, as if standing had become too great an effort for him.
The meal was served by three novices, well-scrubbed girls of good birth between the ages of
twelve and sixteen. In their soft white woolens, each seemed more innocent and unworldly than the
last, yet the High Septon had insisted that no girl spend more than seven days in the queens service,
lest Cersei corrupt her. They tended the queens wardrobe, drew her bath, poured her wine, changed
her bedclothes of a morning. One shared the queens bed every night, to ascertain she had no other
company; the other two slept in an adjoining chamber with the septa who looked over them.
A tall stork of a girl with a pockmarked face escorted him into the royal presence. Cersei rose
when he entered and kissed him lightly on the cheek. Dear uncle. It is so good of you to sup with us.
The queen was dressed as modestly as any matron, in a dark brown gown that buttoned up to her
throat and a hooded green mantle that covered her shaved head. Before her walk she would have
flaunted her baldness beneath a golden crown. Come, sit, she said. Will you have wine?
A cup. He sat, still wary.
A freckled novice filled their cups with hot spiced wine. Tommen tells me that Lord Tyrell
intends to rebuild the Tower of the Hand, Cersei said.
Ser Kevan nodded. The new tower will be twice as tall as the one you burned, he says.
Cersei gave a throaty laugh. Long lances, tall towers  is Lord Tyrell hinting at something?
That made him smile. It is good that she still remembers how to laugh. When he asked if she had
all that she required, the queen said, I am well served. The girls are sweet, and the good septas make
certain that I say my prayers. But once my innocence is proved, it would please me if Taena
Merryweather might attend me once again. She could bring her son to court. Tommen needs other boys
about him, friends of noble birth.
It was a modest request. Ser Kevan saw no reason why it should not be granted. He could foster
the Merryweather boy himself, whilst Lady Taena accompanied Cersei back to Casterly Rock. I will send
for her after the trial, he promised.
Supper began with beef-and-barley soup, followed by a brace of quail and a roast pike near
three feet long, with turnips, mushrooms, and plenty of hot bread and butter. Ser Boros tasted every
dish that was set before the king. A humiliating duty for a knight of the Kingsguard, but perhaps all
Blount was capable of these days  and wise, after the way Tommens brother had died.

The king seemed happier than Kevan Lannister had seen him in a long time. From soup to sweet
Tommen burbled about the exploits of his kittens, whilst feeding them morsels of pike off his own royal
plate. The bad cat was outside my window last night, he informed Kevan at one point, but Ser Pounce
hissed at him and he ran off across the roofs.
The bad cat? Ser Kevan said, amused. He is a sweet boy. An old black tomcat with a torn ear,
Cersei told him. A filthy thing, and foul-tempered. He clawed Joffs hand once. She made a face. The
cats keep the rats down, I know, but that one  hes been known to attack ravens in the rookery.
I will ask the ratters to set a trap for him. Ser Kevan could not remember ever seeing his niece
so quiet, so subdued, so demure. All for the good, he supposed. But it made him sad as well. Her fire is
quenched, she who used to burn so bright. You have not asked about your brother, he said, as they
were waiting for the cream cakes. Cream cakes were the kings favorite.
Cersei lifted her chin, her green eyes shining in the candlelight. Jaime? Have you had word?
None. Cersei, you may need to prepare yourself for
If he were dead, I would know it. We came into this world together, Uncle. He would not go
without me. She took a drink of wine. Tyrion can leave whenever he wishes. You have had no word of
him either, I suppose.
No one has tried to sell us a dwarfs head of late, no.
She nodded. Uncle, may I ask you a question?
Whatever you wish.
Your wife  do you mean to bring her to court?
No. Dorna was a gentle soul, never comfortable but at home with friends and kin around her.
She had done well by their children, dreamed of having grandchildren, prayed seven times a day, loved
needlework and flowers. In Kings Landing she would be as happy as one of Tommens kittens in a pit of
vipers. My lady wife mislikes travel. Lannisport is her place.
It is a wise woman who knows her place.
He did not like the sound of that. Say what you mean.
I thought I did. Cersei held out her cup. The freckled girl filled it once again. The cream cakes
appeared then, and the conversation took a lighter turn. Only after Tommen and his kittens were
escorted off to the royal bedchamber by Ser Boros did their talk turn to the queens trial.
Osneys brothers will not stand by idly and watch him die, Cersei warned him.
I did not expect that they would. Ive had the both of them arrested. That seemed to take her
aback. For what crime?

Fornication with a queen. His High Holiness says that you confessed to bedding both of
themhad you forgotten?
Her face reddened. No. What will you do with them?
The Wall, if they admit their guilt. If they deny it, they can face Ser Robert. Such men should
never have been raised so high.
Cersei lowered her head. I  I misjudged them.
You misjudged a good many men, it seems.
He might have said more, but the dark-haired novice with the round cheeks returned to say,
My lord, my lady, I am sorry to intrude, but there is a boy below. Grand Maester Pycelle begs the favor
of the Lord Regents presence at once.
Dark wings, dark words, Ser Kevan thought. Could Storms End have fallen? Or might this be
word from Bolton in the north?
It might be news of Jaime, the queen said.
There was only one way to know. Ser Kevan rose. Pray excuse me. Before he took his leave, he
dropped to one knee and kissed his niece upon the hand. If her silent giant failed her, it might be the last
kiss she would ever know.
The messenger was a boy of eight or nine, so bundled up in fur he seemed a bear cub. Trant had
kept him waiting out on the drawbridge rather than admit him into Maegors. Go find a fire, lad, Ser
Kevan told him, pressing a penny into his hand. I know the way to the rookery well enough.
The snow had finally stopped falling. Behind a veil of ragged clouds, a full moon floated fat and
white as a snowball. The stars shone cold and distant. As Ser Kevan made his way across the inner ward,
the castle seemed an alien place, where every keep and tower had grown icy teeth, and all familiar
paths had vanished beneath a white blanket. Once an icicle long as a spear fell to shatter by his feet.
Autumn in Kings Landing, he brooded. What must it be like up on the Wall?
The door was opened by a serving girl, a skinny thing in a fur-lined robe much too big for her.
Ser Kevan stamped the snow off his boots, removed his cloak, tossed it to her. The Grand Maester is
expecting me, he announced. The girl nodded, solemn and silent, and pointed to the steps.
Pycelles chambers were beneath the rookery, a spacious suite of rooms cluttered with racks of
herbs and salves and potions and shelves jammed full of books and scrolls. Ser Kevan had always found
them uncomfortably hot. Not tonight. Once past the chamber door, the chill was palpable. Black ash and
dying embers were all that remained of the hearthfire. A few flickering candles cast pools of dim light
here and there.

The rest was shrouded in shadow  except beneath the open window, where a spray of ice
crystals glittered in the moonlight, swirling in the wind. On the window seat a raven loitered, pale, huge,
its feathers ruffled. It was the largest raven that Kevan Lannister had ever seen. Larger than any hunting
hawk at Casterly Rock, larger than the largest owl. Blowing snow danced around it, and the moon
painted it silver.
Not silver. White. The bird is white.
The white ravens of the Citadel did not carry messages, as their dark cousins did. When they
went forth from Oldtown, it was for one purpose only: to herald a change of seasons.
Winter, said Ser Kevan. The word made a white mist in the air. He turned away from the
window.
Then something slammed him in the chest between the ribs, hard as a giants fist. It drove the
breath from him and sent him lurching backwards. The white raven took to the air, its pale wings
slapping him about the head. Ser Kevan half-sat and half-fell onto the window seat. What  who  A
quarrel was sunk almost to the fletching in his chest. No. No, that was how my brother died. Blood was
seeping out around the shaft. Pycelle, he muttered, confused. Help me  I 
Then he saw. Grand Maester Pycelle was seated at his table, his head pillowed on the great
leather-bound tome before him. Sleeping, Kevan thought  until he blinked and saw the deep red gash
in the old mans spotted skull and the blood pooled beneath his head, staining the pages of his book. All
around his candle were bits of bone and brain, islands in a lake of melted wax.
He wanted guards, Ser Kevan thought. I should have sent him guards. Could Cersei have been
right all along? Was this his nephews work? Tyrion? he called. Where  ?
Far away, a half-familiar voice replied.
He stood in a pool of shadow by a bookcase, plump, pale-faced, round-shouldered, clutching a
crossbow in soft powdered hands. Silk slippers swaddled his feet.
Varys?
The eunuch set the crossbow down. Ser Kevan. Forgive me if you can. I bear you no ill will. This
was not done from malice. It was for the realm. For the children.
I have children. I have a wife. Oh, Dorna. Pain washed over him. He closed his eyes, opened
them again. There are  there are hundreds of Lannister guardsmen in this castle.
But none in this room, thankfully. This pains me, my lord. You do not deserve to die alone on
such a cold dark night. There are many like you, good men in service to bad causes  but you were
threatening to undo all the queens good work, to reconcile Highgarden and Casterly Rock, bind the
Faith to your little king, unite the Seven Kingdoms under Tommens rule. So 

A gust of wind blew up. Ser Kevan shivered violently. Are you cold, my lord? asked Varys. Do
forgive me. The Grand Maester befouled himself in dying, and the stink was so abominable that I
thought I might choke.
Ser Kevan tried to rise, but the strength had left him. He could not feel his legs.
I thought the crossbow fitting. You shared so much with Lord Tywin, why not that? Your niece
will think the Tyrells had you murdered, mayhaps with the connivance of the Imp. The Tyrells will
suspect her. Someone somewhere will find a way to blame the Dornishmen. Doubt, division, and
mistrust will eat the very ground beneath your boy king, whilst Aegon raises his banner above Storms
End and the lords of the realm gather round him.
Aegon? For a moment he did not understand. Then he remembered. A babe swaddled in a
crimson cloak, the cloth stained with his blood and brains. Dead. Hes dead.
No. The eunuchs voice seemed deeper. He is here. Aegon has been shaped for rule since
before he could walk. He has been trained in arms, as befits a knight to be, but that was not the end of
his education. He reads and writes, he speaks several tongues, he has studied history and law and
poetry. A septa has instructed him in the mysteries of the Faith since he was old enough to understand
them. He has lived with fisherfolk, worked with his hands, swum in rivers and mended nets and learned
to wash his own clothes at need. He can fish and cook and bind up a wound, he knows what it is like to
be hungry, to be hunted, to be afraid. Tommen has been taught that kingship is his right. Aegon knows
that kingship is his duty, that a king must put his people first, and live and rule for them.
Kevan Lannister tried to cry out  to his guards, his wife, his brother  but the words would not
come. Blood dribbled from his mouth. He shuddered violently.
I am sorry. Varys wrung his hands. You are suffering, I know, yet here I stand going on like
some silly old woman. Time to make an end to it. The eunuch pursed his lips and gave a little whistle.
Ser Kevan was cold as ice, and every labored breath sent a fresh stab of pain through him. He
glimpsed movement, heard the soft scuffling sound of slippered feet on stone. A child emerged from a
pool of darkness, a pale boy in a ragged robe, no more than nine or ten. Another rose up behind the
Grand Maesters chair. The girl who had opened the door for him was there as well. They were all
around him, half a dozen of them, white-faced children with dark eyes, boys and girls together.
And in their hands, the daggers.
WESTEROS

THE BOY KING
TOMMEN BARATHEON, the First of His Name, King of the Andals, the Rhoynar, and the First
Men, Lord of the Seven Kingdoms, a boy of eight years,
his wife, QUEEN MARGAERY of House Tyrell, thrice wed, twice widowed, accused of high
treason, held captive in the Great Sept of Baelor,
her lady companions and cousins, MEGGA, ALLA, and ELINOR TYRELL, accused of fornications,
Elinors betrothed, ALYN AMBROSE, squire,
his mother, CERSEI of House Lannister, Queen Dowager, Lady of Casterly Rock, accused of
high treason, captive in the Great Sept of Baelor,
his siblings:
his elder brother, {KING JOFFREY I BARATHEON}, poisoned during his wedding feast,
his elder sister, PRINCESS MYRCELLA BARATHEON, a girl of nine, a ward of Prince Doran
Martell at Sunspear, betrothed to his son Trystane,
his kittens, SER POUNCE, LADY WHISKERS, BOOTS,
his uncles:
SER JAIME LANNISTER, called THE KINGSLAYER, twin to Queen Cersei, Lord Commander of the
Kingsguard,

TYRION LANNISTER, called THE IMP, a dwarf, accused and condemned for regicide and
kinslaying,
his other kin:
his grandfather, {TYWIN LANNISTER}, Lord of Casterly Rock, Warden of the West, and Hand of
the King, murdered in the privy by his son Tyrion,
his great-uncle, SER KEVAN LANNISTER, Lord Regent and Protector of the Realm, m. Dorna
Swyft,
their children:
SER LANCEL LANNISTER, a knight of the Holy Order of the Warriors Sons,
{WILLEM}, twin to Martyn, murdered at Riverrun,
MARTYN, twin to Willem, a squire,
JANEI, a girl of three,
his great-aunt, GENNA LANNISTER, m. Ser Emmon Frey,
their children:
{SER CLEOS FREY}, killed by outlaws,

his son, SER TYWIN FREY, called TY,
his son, WILLEM FREY, a squire,
SER LYONEL FREY, Lady Gennas second son,
{TION FREY}, a squire, murdered at Riverrun,
WALDER FREY, called RED WALDER, a page at Casterly Rock,
his great-uncle, {SER TYGETT LANNISTER}, m. Darlessa Mar-brand
their children:
TYREK LANNISTER, a squire, vanished during the food riots in Kings Landing,
LADY ERMESANDE HAYFORD, Tyreks child wife,
his great uncle, GERION LANNISTER, lost at sea,
JOY HILL, his bastard daughter,
King Tommens small council:

SER KEVAN LANNISTER, Lord Regent,
LORD MACE TYRELL, Hand of the King,
GRAND MAESTER PYCELLE, counselor and healer,
SER JAIME LANNISTER, Lord Commander of the Kingsguard,
LORD PAXTER REDWYNE, grand admiral and master of ships,
QYBURN, a disgraced maester and reputed necromancer, master of whisperers,
Queen Cerseis former small council,
{LORD GYLES ROSBY}, lord treasurer and master of coin, dead of a cough,
LORD ORTON MERRYWEATHER, justiciar and master of laws, fled to Longtable upon Queen
Cerseis arrest,
AURANE WATERS, the Bastard of Driftmark, grand admiral and master of ships, fled to sea
with the royal fleet upon Queen Cerseis arrest,

King Tommens Kingsguard:
SER JAIME LANNISTER, Lord Commander,
SER MERYN TRANT,
SER BOROS BLOUNT, removed and thence restored,
SER BALON SWANN, in Dorne with Princess Myrcella,
SER OSMUND KETTLEBLACK,
SER LORAS TYRELL, the Knight of Flowers,
{SER ARYS OAKHEART}, dead in Dorne,
Tommens court at Kings Landing:
MOON BOY, the royal jester and fool,
PATE, a lad of eight, King Tommens whipping boy,

ORMOND OF OLDTOWN, the royal harper and bard,
SER OSFRYD KETTLEBLACK, brother to Ser Osmund and Ser Osney, a captain in the City Watch,
NOHO DIMITTIS, envoy from the Iron Bank of Braavos,
{SER GREGOR CLEGANE}, called THE MOUNTAIN THAT RIDES, dead of a poisoned wound,
RENNIFER LONGWATERS, chief undergaoler of the Red Keeps dungeons,
Queen Margaerys alleged lovers:
WAT, a singer styling himself THE BLUE BARD, a captive driven mad by torment,
{HAMISH THE HARPER}, an aged singer, died a captive,
SER MARK MULLENDORE, who lost a monkey and half an arm in the Battle of the Blackwater,
SER TALLAD called THE TALL, SER LAMBERT TURNBERRY, SER BAYARD NORCROSS, SER HUGH
CLIFTON,
JALABHAR XHO, Prince of the Red Flower Vale, an exile from the Summer Isles,
SER HORAS REDWYNE, found innocent and freed,

SER HOBBER REDWYNE, found innocent and freed,
Queen Cerseis chief accuser,
SER OSNEY KETTLEBLACK, brother to Ser Osmund and Ser Osfryd, held captive by the Faith,
the people of the Faith:
THE HIGH SEPTON, Father of the Faithful, Voice of the Seven on Earth, an old man and frail,
SEPTA UNELLA, SEPTA MOELLE, SEPTA SCOLERA, the queens gaolers,
SEPTON TORBERT, SEPTON RAYNARD, SEPTON LUCEON, SEPTON OLLIDOR, of the Most
Devout,
SEPTA AGLANTINE, SEPTA HELICENT, serving the Seven at the Great Sept of Baelor,
SER THEODAN WELLS, called THEODAN THE TRUE, pious commander of the Warriors Sons,
the sparrows, the humblest of men, fierce in their piety,

people of Kings Landing:
CHATAYA, proprietor of an expensive brothel,
ALAYAYA, her daughter,
DANCY, MAREI, two of Chatayas girls,
TOBHO MOTT, a master armorer,
lords of the crownlands, sworn to the Iron Throne:
RENFRED RYKKER, Lord of Duskendale,
SER RUFUS LEEK, a one-legged knight in his service, castellan of the Dun Fort at Duskendale,
{TANDA STOKEWORTH}, Lady of Stokeworth, died of a broken hip,
her eldest daughter, {FALYSE}, died screaming in the black cells,
{SER BALMAN BYRCH}, Lady Falyses husband, killed in a joust,
her younger daughter, LOLLYS, weak of wit, Lady of Stoke-worth,

her newborn son, TYRION TANNER, of the hundred fathers,
her husband, SER BRONN OF THE BLACKWATER, sellsword turned knight,
MAESTER FRENKEN, in service at Stokeworth,
King Tommens banner shows the crowned stag of Baratheon, black on gold, and the lion of
Lannister, gold on crimson, combatant.
THE KING AT THE WALL
STANNIS BARATHEON, the First of His Name, second son of Lord Steffon Baratheon and Lady
Cassana of House Estermont, Lord of Dragonstone, styling himself King of Westeros,
with King Stannis at Castle Black:
LADY MELISANDRE OF ASSHAI, called THE RED WOMAN, a priestess of Rhllor, the Lord of
Light,
his knights and sworn swords:
SER RICHARD HORPE, his second-in-command,
SER GODRY FARRING, called GIANTSLAYER,
SER JUSTIN MASSEY,

LORD ROBIN PEASEBURY,
LORD HARWOOD FELL,
SER CLAYTON SUGGS, SER CORLISS PENNY, queens men and fervent followers of the Lord of
Light,
SER WILLAM FOXGLOVE, SER HUMFREY CLIFTON, SER ORMUND WYLDE, SER HARYS COBB,
knights
his squires, DEVAN SEAWORTH and BRYEN FARRING
his captive, MANCE RAYDER, King-Beyond-the-Wall,
Rayders infant son, the wildling prince,
the boys wet nurse, GILLY, a wildling girl,
Gillys infant son, the abomination, fathered by her father {CRASTER},
at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea:
QUEEN SELYSE of House Florent, his wife,
PRINCESS SHIREEN, their daughter, a girl of eleven,

PATCHFACE, Shireens tattooed fool,
her uncle, SER AXELL FLORENT, foremost of the queens men, styling himself the Queens
Hand,
her knights and sworn swords, SER NARBERT GRANDISON, SER BENETHON SCALES, SER
PATREK OF KINGS MOUNTAIN, SER DORDEN THE DOUR, SER MALE-GORN OF REDPOOL, SER LAMBERT
WHITEWATER, SER PERKIN FOLLARD, SER BRUS BUCKLER
SER DAVOS SEAWORTH, Lord of the Rainwood, Admiral of the Narrow Sea, and Hand of the
King, called THE ONION KNIGHT,
SALLADHAR SAAN of Lys, a pirate and sellsail, master of the Valyrian and a fleet of galleys,
TYCHO NESTORIS, emissary from the Iron Bank of Braavos.
Stannis has taken for his banner the fiery heart of the Lord of Lighta red heart surrounded by
orange flames upon a yellow field. Within the heart is the crowned stag of House Baratheon, in black.
KING OF THE ISLES AND THE NORTH
The Greyjoys of Pyke claim descent from the Grey King of the Age of Heroes. Legend says the
Grey King ruled the sea itself and took a mermaid to wife. Aegon the Dragon ended the line of the last
King of the Iron Islands, but allowed the ironborn to revive their ancient custom and choose who should
have primacy among them. They chose Lord Vickon Greyjoy of Pyke. The Greyjoy sigil is a golden kraken
upon a black field. Their words are We Do Not Sow.
EURON GREYJOY, the Third of His Name Since the Grey King, King of the Iron Islands and the
North, King of Salt and Rock, Son of the Sea Wind, and Lord Reaper of Pyke, captain of the Silence, called
CROWS EYE,

his elder brother, {BALON}, King of the Iron Islands and the North, the Ninth of His Name Since
the Grey King, killed in a fall,
LADY ALANNYS, of House Harlaw, Balons widow,
their children:
{RODRIK}, slain during Balons first rebellion,
{MARON}, slain during Balons first rebellion,
ASHA, captain of the Black Wind and conqueror of Deepwood Motte, m. Erik Ironmaker,
THEON, called by northmen THEON TURNCLOAK, a captive at the Dreadfort,
his younger brother, VICTARION, Lord Captain of the Iron Fleet, master of the Iron Victory,
his youngest brother, AERON, called DAMPHAIR, a priest of the Drowned God,
his captains and sworn swords:
TORWOLD BROWNTOOTH, PINCHFACE JON MYRE, RODRIK FREEBORN, THE RED OARSMAN,
LEFT-HAND LUCAS CODD, QUELLON HUMBLE, HARREN HALF-HOARE, KEMMETT PYKE THE BASTARD,
QARL THE THRALL, STONEHAND, RALF THE SHEPHERD, RALF OF LORDSPORT
his crewmen:

{CRAGORN}, who blew the hellhorn and died,
his lords bannermen:
ERIK IRONMAKER, called ERIK ANVIL-BREAKER and ERIK THE JUST, Lord Steward of the Iron
Islands, castellan of Pyke, an old man once renowned, m. Asha Greyjoy,
lords of Pyke:
GERMUND BOTLEY, Lord of Lordsport,
WALDON WYNCH, Lord of Iron Holt,
lords of Old Wyk:
DUNSTAN DRUMM, The Drumm, Lord of Old Wyk,
NORNE GOODBROTHER, of Shatterstone,
THE STONEHOUSE,
lords of Great Wyk:
GOROLD GOODBROTHER, Lord of the Hammerhorn,
TRISTON FARWYND, Lord of Sealskin Point,

THE SPARR,
MELDRED MERLYN, Lord of Pebbleton,
lords of Orkmont:
ALYN ORKWOOD, called ORKWOOD OF ORKMONT,
LORD BALON TAWNEY,
lords of Saltcliffe:
LORD DONNOR SALTCLIFFE,
LORD SUNDERLY
lords of Harlaw:
RODRIK HARLAW, called THE READER, Lord of Harlaw, Lord of Ten Towers, Harlaw of Harlaw,
SIGFRYD HARLAW, called SIGFRYD SILVERHAIR, his great uncle, master of Harlaw Hall,
HOTHO HARLAW, called HOTHO HUMPBACK, of the Tower of Glimmering, a cousin,

BOREMUND HARLAW, called BOREMUND THE BLUE, master of Harridan Hill, a cousin,
lords of the lesser isles and rocks:
GYLBERT FARWYND, Lord of the Lonely Light,
the ironborn conquerors:
on the Shield Islands
ANDRIK THE UNSMILING, Lord of Southshield,
NUTE THE BARBER, Lord of Oakenshield,
MARON VOLMARK, Lord of Greenshield,
SER HARRAS HARLAW, Lord of Greyshield, the Knight of Grey Gardens,
at Moat Cailin
RALF KENNING, castellan and commander,
ADRACK HUMBLE, short half an arm,
DAGON CODD, who yields to no man,

at Torrhens Square
DAGMER, called CLEFTJAW, captain of Foamdrinker,
at Deepwood Motte
ASHA GREYJOY, the krakens daughter, captain of the Black Wind,
her lover, QARL THE MAID, a swordsman,
her former lover, TRISTIFER BOTLEY, heir to Lordsport, dispossessed of his lands,
her crewmen, ROGGON RUSTBEARD, GRIMTONGUE, ROLFE THE DWARF, LORREN LONGAXE,
ROOK, FINGERS, SIX-TOED HARL, DROOPEYE DALE, EARL HARLAW, CROMM, HAGEN THE HORN and his
beautiful red-haired daughter,
her cousin, QUENTON GREYJOY,
her cousin, DAGON GREYJOY, called DAGON THE DRUNKARD.
OTHER HOUSES GREAT AND SMALL
HOUSE ARRYN

The Arryns are descended from the Kings of Mountain and Vale. Their sigil is a white
moon-and-falcon upon a sky blue field. House Arryn has taken no part in the War of the Five Kings.
ROBERT ARRYN, Lord of the Eyrie, Defender of the Vale, a sickly boy of eight years, called
SWEETROBIN,
his mother, {LADY LYSA of House Tully}, widow of Lord Jon Arryn, pushed from the Moon Door
to her death,
his guardian, PETYR BAELISH, called LITTLEFINGER, Lord of Harrenhal, Lord Paramount of the
Trident, and Lord Protector of the Vale,
ALAYNE STONE, Lord Petyrs natural daughter, a maid of three-and-ten, actually Sansa Stark,
SER LOTHOR BRUNE, a sellsword in Lord Petyrs service, captain of guards at the Eyrie,
OSWELL, a grizzled man-at-arms in Lord Petyrs service, sometimes called KETTLEBLACK,
SER SHADRICK OF THE SHADY GLEN, called THE MAD MOUSE, a hedge knight in Lord Petyrs
service,
SER BYRON THE BEAUTIFUL, SER MORGARTH THE MERRY, hedge knights in Lord Petyrs
service,
his household and retainers:
MAESTER COLEMON, counselor, healer, and tutor,
MORD, a brutal gaoler with teeth of gold,

GRETCHEL, MADDY, and MELA, servingwomen,
his bannermen, the Lords of Mountain and Vale:
YOHN ROYCE, called BRONZE YOHN, Lord of Runestone,
his son, SER ANDAR, heir to Runestone,
LORD NESTOR ROYCE, High Steward of the Vale and castellan of the Gates of the Moon,
his son and heir, SER ALBAR,
his daughter, MYRANDA, called RANDA, a widow, but scarce used,
MYA STONE, bastard daughter of King Robert,
LYONEL CORBRAY, Lord of Hearts Home,
SER LYN COBRAY, his brother, who wields the famed blade Lady Forlorn,
SER LUCAS CORBRAY, his younger brother,
TRISTON SUNDERLAND, Lord of the Three Sisters,

GODRIC BORRELL, Lord of Sweetsister,
ROLLAND LONGTHORPE, Lord of Longsister,
ALESANDOR TORRENT, Lord of Littlesister,
ANYA WAYNWOOD, Lady of Ironoaks Castle,
SER MORTON, her eldest son and heir,
SER DONNEL, the Knight of the Bloody Gate,
WALLACE, her youngest son,
HARROLD HARDYNG, her ward, a squire oft called HARRY THE HEIR,
SER SYMOND TEMPLETON, the Knight of Ninestars,
JON LYNDERLY, Lord of the Snakewood,
EDMUND WAXLEY, the Knight of Wickenden,
GEROLD GRAFTON, the Lord of Gulltown,
{EON HUNTER}, Lord of Longbow Hall, recently deceased,

SER GILWOOD, Lord Eons eldest son and heir, now called YOUNG LORD HUNTER,
SER EUSTACE, Lord Eons second son,
SER HARLAN, Lord Eons youngest son,
Young Lord Hunters household:
MAESTER WILLAMEN, counselor, healer, tutor,
HORTON REDFORT, Lord of Redfort, thrice wed,
SER JASPER, SER CREIGHTON, SER JON, his sons,
SER MYCHEL, his youngest son, a new-made knight, m. Ysilla Royce of Runestone,
BENEDAR BELMORE, Lord of Strongsong,
clan chiefs from the Mountains of the Moon,
SHAGGA SON OF DOLF, OF THE STONE CROWS, presently leading a band in the kingswood,
TIMETT SON OF TIMETT, OF THE BURNED MEN,

CHELLA DAUGHTER OF CHEYK, OF THE BLACK EARS,
CRAWN SON OF CALOR, OF THE MOON BROTHERS.
The Arryn words are As High as Honor.
HOUSE BARATHEON
The youngest of the Great Houses, House Baratheon was born during the Wars of Conquest
when Orys Baratheon, rumored to be a bastard brother of Aegon the Conqueror, defeated and slew
Argilac the Arrogant, the last Storm King. Aegon rewarded him with Argilacs castle, lands, and daughter.
Orys took the girl to bride and adopted the banner, honors, and words of her line.
In the 283rd year after Aegons Conquest, Robert of House Baratheon, Lord of Storms End,
overthrew the Mad King, Aenys II Targaryen, to win the Iron Throne. His claim to the crown derived from
his grandmother, a daughter of King Aegon V Targaryen, though Robert preferred to say his warhammer
was his claim.
{ROBERT BARATHEON}, the First of His Name, King of the Andals, the Rhoynar, and the First
Men, Lord of the Seven Kingdoms and Protector of the Realm, killed by a boar,
his wife, QUEEN CERSEI of House Lannister,
their children:
{KING JOFFREY BARATHEON}, the First of His Name, murdered at his wedding feast,
PRINCESS MYRCELLA, a ward in Sunspear, betrothed to Prince Trystane Martell,
KING TOMMEN BARATHEON, the First of His Name,

his brothers:
STANNIS BARATHEON, rebel Lord of Dragonstone and pretender to the Iron Throne,
his daughter, SHIREEN, a girl of eleven,
{RENLY BARATHEON}, rebel Lord of Storms End and pretender to the Iron Throne, murdered
at Storms End in the midst of his army,
his bastard children:
MYA STONE, a maid of nineteen, in the service of Lord Nestor Royce, of the Gates of the
Moon,
GENDRY, an outlaw in the riverlands, ignorant of his heritage,
EDRIC STORM, his acknowledged bastard son by Lady Delena of House Florent, hiding in Lys,
SER ANDREW ESTERMONT, his cousin and guardian,
his guards and protectors:
SER GERALD GOWER, LEWYS called THE FISH-WIFE, SER TRISTON OF TALLY HILL, OMER
BLACKBERRY,
{BARRA}, his bastard daughter by a whore of Kings Landing, killed by the command of his
widow,

his other kin:
his great-uncle, SER ELDON ESTERMONT, Lord of Green-stone,
his cousin, SER AEMON ESTERMONT, Eldons son,
his cousin, SER ALYN ESTERMONT, Aemons son,
his cousin, SER LOMAS ESTERMONT, Eldons son,
his cousin, SER ANDREW ESTERMONT, Lomass son,
bannermen sworn to Storms End, the storm lords:
DAVOS SEAWORTH, Lord of the Rainwood, Admiral of the Narrow Sea, and Hand of the King,
his wife, MARYA, a carpenters daughter,
their sons, {DALE, ALLARD, MATTHOS, MARIC}, killed in the Battle of the Blackwater,
their son DEVAN, squire to King Stannis,

their sons, STANNIS and STEFFON,
SER GILBERT FARRING, castellan of Storms End,
his son, BRYEN, squire to King Stannis,
his cousin, SER GODRY FARRING, called GIANTSLAYER,
ELWOOD MEADOWS, Lord of Grassfield Keep, seneschal at Storms End,
SELWYN TARTH, called THE EVENSTAR, Lord of Tarth,
his daughter, BRIENNE, THE MAID OF TARTH, also called BRIENNE THE BEAUTY,
her squire, PODRICK PAYNE, a boy of ten,
SER RONNET CONNINGTON, called RED RONNET, the Knight of Griffins Roost,
his younger siblings, RAYMUND and ALYNNE,
his bastard son, RONALD STORM,
his cousin, JON CONNINGTON, once Lord of Storms End and Hand of the King, exiled by Aerys
II Targaryen, believed dead of drink,
LESTER MORRIGEN, Lord of Crows Nest,

his brother and heir, SER RICHARD MORRIGEN,
his brother, {SER GUYARD MORRIGEN, called GUYARD THE GREEN}, slain in the Battle of the
Blackwater,
ARSTAN SELMY, Lord of Harvest Hall,
his great-uncle, SER BARRISTAN SELMY,
CASPER WYLDE, Lord of the Rain House,
his uncle, SER ORMUND WYLDE, an aged knight,
HARWOOD FELL, Lord of Felwood,
HUGH GRANDISON, called GREYBEARD, Lord of Grand-view,
SEBASTION ERROL, Lord of Haystack Hall,
CLIFFORD SWANN, Lord of Stonehelm
BERIC DONDARRION, Lord of Blackwater, called THE LIGHTNING LORD, an outlaw in the
riverlands, oft slain and now thought dead,
{BRYCE CARON}, Lord of Nightsong, slain by Ser Philip Foote on the Blackwater,

his slayer, SER PHILIP FOOTE, a one-eyed knight, Lord of Nightsong,
his baseborn half-brother, SER ROLLAND STORM, called THE BASTARD OF NIGHTSONG,
pretender Lord of Night-song,
ROBIN PEASEBURY, Lord of Poddingfield,
MARY MERTYNS, Lady of Mistwood,
RALPH BUCKLER, Lord of Bronzegate,
his cousin, SER BRUS BUCKLER.
The Baratheon sigil is a crowned stag, black, on a golden field. Their words are Ours Is the Fury.
HOUSE FREY
The Freys are bannermen to House Tully, but have not always been diligent in their duty. At the
outset of the War of the Five Kings, Robb Stark won Lord Walders allegiance by pledging to marry one
of his daughters or granddaughters. When he wed Lady Jeyne Westerling instead, the Freys conspired
with Roose Bolton and murdered the Young Wolf and his followers at what became known as the Red
Wedding.
WALDER FREY, Lord of the Crossing,
by his first wife, {LADY PERRA, of House Royce}:
{SER STEVRON FREY}, died after the Battle of Oxcross,

SER EMMON FREY, his second son,
SER AENYS FREY, leading the Frey forces in the north,
Aenyss son, AEGON BLOODBORN, an outlaw,
Aenyss son, RHAEGAR, an envoy to White Harbor,
PERRIANE, his eldest daughter, m. Ser Leslyn Haigh,
by his second wife, {LADY CYRENNA, of House Swann}:
SER JARED FREY, an envoy to White Harbor,
SEPTON LUCEON, his fifth son,
by his third wife, {LADY AMAREI of House Crakehall}:
SER HOSTEEN FREY, a knight of great repute,
LYENTHE, his second daughter, m. Lord Lucias Vypren,
SYMOND FREY, his seventh son, a counter of coins, an envoy to White Harbor,

SER DANWELL FREY, his eighth son,
{MERRETT FREY}, his ninth son, hanged at Oldstones,
Merretts daughter, WALDA, called FAT WALDA, m. Roose Bolton, Lord of the Dreadfort,
Merretts son, WALDER, called LITTLE WALDER, eight, a squire in service to Ramsay Bolton,
{SER GEREMY FREY}, his tenth son, drowned,
SER RAYMUND FREY, his eleventh son,
by his fourth wife, {LADY ALYSSA, of House Blackwood}:
LOTHAR FREY, his twelfth son, called LAME LOTHAR,
SER JAMMOS FREY, his thirteenth son,
Jammoss son, WALDER, called BIG WALDER, eight, a squire in service to Ramsey Bolton,
SER WHALEN FREY, his fourteenth son,
MORYA, his third daughter, m. Ser Flement Brax,
TYTA, his fourth daughter, called TYTA THE MAID,

by his fifth wife, {LADY SARYA of House Whent}:
no progeny,
by his sixth wife, {LADY BETHANY of House Rosby}:
SER PERWYN FREY, his Walders fifteenth son,
{SER BENFREY FREY}, his Walders sixteenth son, died of a wound received at the Red
Wedding,
MAESTER WILLAMEN, his seventeenth son, in service at Longbow Hall,
OLYVAR FREY, his eighteenth son, once a squire to Robb Stark,
ROSLIN, his fifth daughter, m. Lord Edmure Tully at the Red Wedding, pregnant with his child,
by his seventh wife, {LADY ANNARA of House Farring}:
ARWYN, his sixth daughter, a maid of fourteen,
WENDEL, his nineteenth son, a page at Seagard,

COLMAR, his twentieth son, eleven and promised to the Faith,
WALTYR, called TYR, his twenty-first son, ten,
ELMAR, his twenty-second and lastborn son, a boy of nine briefly betrothed to Arya Stark,
SHIREI, his seventh daughter and youngest child, a girl of seven,
his eighth wife, LADY JOYEUSE of House Erenford,
presently with child,
Lord Walders natural children, by sundry mothers,
WALDER RIVERS, called BASTARD WALDER,
MAESTER MELWYS, in service at Rosby,
JEYNE RIVERS, MARTYN RIVERS, RYGER RIVERS, RONEL RIVERS, MELLARA RIVERS, others
HOUSE LANNISTER
The Lannisters of Casterly Rock remain the principal support of King Tommens claim to the Iron
Throne. They boast of descent from Lann the Clever, the legendary trickster of the Age of Heroes. The
gold of Casterly Rock and the Golden Tooth has made them the wealthiest of the Great Houses. The
Lannister sigil is a golden lion upon a crimson field. Their words are Hear Me Roar!

{TYWIN LANNISTER}, Lord of Casterly Rock, Shield of Lannis-port, Warden of the West, and Hand
of the King, murdered by his dwarf son in his privy,
Lord Tywins children:
CERSEI, twin to Jaime, widow of King Robert I Baratheon, a prisoner at the Great Sept of
Baelor,
SER JAIME, twin to Cersei, called THE KINGSLAYER, Lord Commander of the Kingsguard,
his squires, JOSMYN PECKLEDON, GARRETT PAEGE, LEW PIPER,
SER ILYN PAYNE, a tongueless knight, lately the Kings Justice and headsman,
SER RONNET CONNINGTON, called RED RONNET, the Knight of Griffins Roost, sent to
Maidenpool with a prisoner,
SER ADDAM MARBRAND, SER FLEMENT BRAX, SER ALYN STACKSPEAR, SER STEFFON SWYFT,
SER HUMFREY SWYFT, SER LYLE CRAKEHALL called STRONGBOAR, SER JON BETTLEY called BEARDLESS
JON, knights serving with Ser Jaimes host at River-run,
TYRION, called THE IMP, dwarf and kinslayer, a fugitive in exile across the narrow sea,
the household at Casterly Rock:

MAESTER CREYLEN, healer, tutor, and counselor,
VYLARR, captain of guards,
SER BENEDICT BROOM, master-at-arms,
WHITESMILE WAT, a singer,
Lord Tywins siblings and their offspring:
SER KEVAN LANNISTER, m. Dorna of House Swyft,
LADY GENNA, m. Ser Emmon Frey, now Lord of Riverrun,
Gennas eldest son, {SER CLEOS FREY}, m. Jeyne of House Darry, killed by outlaws,
Cleoss eldest son, SER TYWIN FREY, called TY, now heir to Riverrun,
Cleoss second son, WILLEM FREY, a squire,
Gennas younger sons, SER LYONEL FREY, {TION FREY}, WALDER FREY called RED WALDER,
{SER TYGETT LANNISTER}, died of a pox,

TYREK, Tygetts son, missing and feared dead,
LADY ERMESANDE HAYFORD, Tyreks child wife,
{GERION LANNISTER}, lost at sea,
JOY HILL, Gerions bastard daughter, eleven,
Lord Tywins other close kin:
{SER STAFFORD LANNISTER}, a cousin and brother to Lord Tywins wife, slain in battle at
Oxcross,
CERENNA and MYRIELLE, Staffords daughters,
SER DAVEN LANNISTER, Staffords son,
SER DAMION LANNISTER, a cousin, m. Lady Shiera Crake-hall,
their son, SER LUCION,
their daughter, LANNA, m. Lord Antario Jast,

LADY MARGOT, a cousin, m. Lord Titus Peake,
bannermen and sworn swords, Lords of the West:
DAMON MARBRAND, Lord of Ashemark,
ROLAND CRAKEHALL, Lord of Crakehall,
SEBASTON FARMAN, Lord of Fair Isle,
TYTOS BRAX, Lord of Hornvale,
QUENTEN BANEFORT, Lord of Banefort,
SER HARYS SWYFT, goodfather to Ser Kevan Lannister,
REGENARD ESTREN, Lord of Wyndhall,
GAWEN WESTERLING, Lord of the Crag,
LORD SELMOND STACKSPEAR,
TERRENCE KENNING, Lord of Kayce,

LORD ANTARIO JAST,
LORD ROBIN MORELAND,
LADY ALYSANNE LEFFORD,
LEWYS LYDDEN, Lord of the Deep Den,
LORD PHILIP PLUMM,
LORD GARRISON PRESTER,
SER LORENT LORCH, a landed knight,
SER GARTH GREENFIELD, a landed knight,
SER LYMOND VIKARY, a landed knight,
SER RAYNARD RUTTIGER, a landed knight
SER MANFRYD YEW, a landed knight,
SER TYBOLT HETHERSPOON, a landed knight.

HOUSE MARTELL
Dorne was the last of the Seven Kingdoms to swear fealty to the Iron Throne. Blood, custom,
geography, and history all helped to set the Dornishmen apart from the other kingdoms. At the
outbreak of the War of the Five Kings Dorne took no part, but when Myrcella Baratheon was betrothed
to Prince Trystane, Sunspear declared its support for King Joffrey. The Martell banner is a red sun
pierced by a golden spear. Their words are Unbowed, Unbent, Unbroken.
DORAN NYMEROS MARTELL, Lord of Sunspear, Prince of Dorne,
his wife, MELLARIO, of the Free City of Norvos,
their children:
PRINCESS ARIANNE, heir to Sunspear,
PRINCE QUENTYN, a new-made knight, fostered at Yron-wood,
PRINCE TRYSTANE, betrothed to Myrcella Baratheon,
SER GASCOYNE OF THE GREENBLOOD, his sworn shield,
his siblings:
{PRINCESS ELIA}, raped and murdered during the Sack of Kings Landing,

her daughter {RHAENYS TARGARYEN}, murdered during the Sack of Kings Landing,
her son, {AEGON TARGARYEN}, a babe at the breast, murdered during the Sack of Kings
Landing,
{PRINCE OBERYN, called THE RED VIPER}, slain by Ser Gregor Clegane during a trial by combat,
his paramour, ELLARIA SAND, natural daughter of Lord Harmen Uller,
his bastard daughters, THE SAND SNAKES:
OBARA, his daughter by an Oldtown whore,
NYMERIA, called LADY NYM, his daughter by a noble-woman of Old Volantis,
TYENE, his daughter by a septa,
SARELLA, his daughter by a trader captain from the Summer Isles,
ELIA, his daughter by Ellaria Sand,
OBELLA, his daughter by Ellaria Sand,
DOREA, his daughter by Ellaria Sand,
LOREZA, his daughter by Ellaria Sand,

Prince Dorans court
at the Water Gardens:
AREO HOTAH, of Norvos, captain of guards,
MAESTER CALEOTTE, counselor, healer, and tutor,
at Sunspear:
MAESTER MYLES, counselor, healer, and tutor,
RICASSO, seneschal, old and blind,
SER MANFREY MARTELL, castellan at Sunspear
LADY ALYSE LADYBRIGHT, lord treasurer,
his ward, PRINCESS MYRCELLA BARATHEON, betrothed to Prince Trystane,

her sworn shield, {SER ARYS OAKHEART}, slain by Areo Hotah,
her bedmaid and companion, ROSAMUND LANNISTER, a distant cousin,
his bannermen, the Lords of Dorne:
ANDERS YRONWOOD, Lord of Yronwood, Warden of the Stone Way, the Bloodroyal,
YNYS, his eldest daughter, m. Ryon Allyrion,
SER CLETUS, his son and heir,
GWYNETH, his youngest daughter, a girl of twelve,
HARMEN ULLER, Lord of Hellholt,
DELONNE ALLYRION, Lady of Godsgrace,
RYON ALLYRION, her son and heir,
DAGOS MANWOODY, Lord of Kingsgrave,
LARRA BLACKMONT, Lady of Blackmont,

NYMELLA TOLAND, Lady of Ghost Hill,
QUENTYN QORGYLE, Lord of Sandstone,
SER DEZIEL DALT, the Knight of Lemonwood,
FRANKLYN FOWLER, Lord of Skyreach, called THE OLD HAWK, the Warden of the Princes Pass,
SER SYMON SANTAGAR, the Knight of Spottswood,
EDRIC DAYNE, Lord of Starfall, a squire,
TREBOR JORDAYNE, Lord of the Tor,
TREMOND GARGALEN, Lord of Salt Shore,
DAERON VAITH, Lord of the Red Dunes.
HOUSE STARK
The Starks trace their descent from Brandon the Builder and the Kings of Winter. For thousands
of years, they ruled from Winterfell as Kings in the North, until Torrhen Stark, the King Who Knelt, chose
to swear fealty to Aegon the Dragon rather than give battle. When Lord Eddard Stark of Winterfell was
executed by King Joffrey, the northmen foreswore their loyalty to the Iron Throne and proclaimed Lord
Eddards son Robb as King in the North. During the War of the Five Kings, he won every battle, but was
betrayed and murdered by the Freys and Boltons at the Twins during his uncles wedding.

{ROBB STARK}, King in the North, King of the Trident, Lord of Winterfell, called THE YOUNG
WOLF, murdered at the Red Wedding,
{GREY WIND}, his direwolf, killed at the Red Wedding,
his trueborn siblings:
SANSA, his sister, m. Tyrion of House Lannister,
{LADY}, her direwolf, killed at Castle Darry,
ARYA, a girl of eleven, missing and thought dead,
NYMERIA, her direwolf, prowling the riverlands,
BRANDON, called BRAN, a crippled boy of nine, heir to Winterfell, believed dead,
SUMMER, his direwolf,
RICKON, a boy of four, believed dead,
SHAGGYDOG, his direwolf, black and savage,
OSHA, a wildling woman once captive at Winterfell,

his bastard half-brother, JON SNOW, of the Nights Watch,
GHOST, Jons direwolf, white and silent,
his other kin:
his uncle, BENJEN STARK, First Ranger of the Nights Watch, lost beyond the Wall, presumed
dead,
his aunt, {LYSA ARRYN}, Lady of the Eyrie,
her son, ROBERT ARRYN, Lord of the Eyrie and Defender of the Vale, a sickly boy,
his uncle, EDMURE TULLY, Lord of Riverrun, taken captive at the Red Wedding,
LADY ROSLIN, of House Frey, Edmures bride, great with child,
his great-uncle, SER BRYNDEN TULLY, called THE BLACK-FISH, lately castellan of Riverrun, now
a hunted man,
bannermen of Winterfell, the Lords of the North:
JON UMBER, called THE GREATJON, Lord of the Last Hearth, a captive at the Twins,

{JON, called THE SMALLJON}, the Greatjons eldest son and heir, slain at the Red Wedding,
MORS called CROWFOOD, uncle to the Greatjon, castellan at the Last Hearth,
HOTHER called WHORESBANE, uncle to the Greatjon, likewise castellan at the Last Hearth,
{CLEY CERWYN}, Lord of Cerwyn, killed at Winterfell,
JONELLE, his sister, a maid of two-and-thirty,
ROOSE BOLTON, Lord of the Dreadfort,
{DOMERIC}, his heir, died of a bad belly,
WALTON called STEELSHANKS, his captain,
RAMSAY BOLTON, his natural son, called THE BASTARD OF BOLTON, Lord of the Hornwood,
WALDER FREY and WALDER FREY, called BIG WALDER and LITTLE WALDER, Ramsays squires,
BEN BONES, kennelmaster at the Dreadfort,
{REEK}, a man-at-arms infamous for his stench, slain while posing as Ramsay,

the Bastards Boys, Ramsays men-at-arms:
YELLOW DICK, DAMON DANCE-FOR-ME, LUTON, SOUR ALYN, SKINNER, GRUNT,
{RICKARD KARSTARK}, Lord of Karhold, beheaded by the Young Wolf for murdering prisoners,
{EDDARD}, his son, slain in the Whispering Wood,
{TORRHEN}, his son, slain in the Whispering Wood,
HARRION, his son, a captive at Maidenpool,
ALYS, his daughter, a maid of fifteen,
his uncle ARNOLF, castellan of Karhold,
CREGAN, Arnolfs elder son,
ARTHOR, Arnolfs younger son,
WYMAN MANDERLY, Lord of White Harbor, vastly fat,
SER WYLIS MANDERLY, his eldest son and heir, very fat, a captive at Harrenhal,
Wyliss wife, LEONA of House Woolfield,

WYNAFRYD, their eldest daughter,
WYLLA, their younger daughter,
{SER WENDEL MANDERLY}, his second son, slain at the Red Wedding,
SER MARLON MANDERLY, his cousin, commander of the garrison at White Harbor,
MAESTER THEOMORE, counselor, tutor, healer,
WEX, a boy of twelve, once squire to Theon Greyjoy, mute,
SER BARTIMUS, an old knight, one-legged, one-eyed, and oft drunk, castellan of the Wolfs
Den,
GARTH, a gaoler and headsman,
his axe, LADY LU,
THERRY, a young turnkey,
MAEGE MORMONT, Lady of Bear Island, the She-Bear,
{DACEY}, her eldest daughter, slain at the Red Wedding,

ALYSANE, her daughter, the young She-Bear
LYRA, JORELLE, LYANNA, her younger daughters,
{JEOR MORMONT}, her brother, Lord Commander of the Nights Watch, slain by own men,
SER JORAH MORMONT, his son, an exile,
HOWLAND REED, Lord of Greywater Watch, a crannogman,
his wife, JYANA, of the crannogmen,
their children:
MEERA, a young huntress,
JOJEN, a boy blessed with green sight,
GALBART GLOVER, Master of Deepwood Motte, unwed,
ROBETT GLOVER, his brother and heir,
Roberts wife, SYBELLE of House Locke,
BENJICOT BRANCH, NOSELESS NED WOODS, men of the wolfswood sworn to Deepwood
Motte,

{SER HELMAN TALLHART}, Master of Torrhens Square, slain at Duskendale,
{BENFRED}, his son and heir, slain by ironmen on the Stony Shore,
EDDARA, his daughter, captive at Torrhens Square,
{LEOBALD}, his brother, killed at Winterfell,
Leobalds wife, BERENA of House Hornwood, captive at Torrhens Square,
their sons, BRANDON and BEREN, likewise captives at Torrhens Square,
RODRIK RYSWELL, Lord of the Rills,
BARBREY DUSTIN, his daughter, Lady of Barrowton, widow of Lord Willam Dustin,
HARWOOD STOUT, her liege man, a petty lord at Barrowton,
{BETHANY BOLTON}, his daughter, second wife of Lord Roose Bolton, died of a fever,
ROGER RYSWELL, RICKARD RYSWELL, ROOSE RYSWELL, his quarrelsome cousins and
bannermen,
LYESSA FLINT, Lady of Widows Watch,

ONDREW LOCKE, Lord of Oldcastle, an old man,
the chiefs of the mountain clans:
HUGO WULL, called BIG BUCKET, or THE WULL,
BRANDON NORREY, called THE NORREY,
BRANDON NORREY, the Younger, his son,
TORREN LIDDLE, called THE LIDDLE,
DUNCAN LIDDLE, his eldest son, called BIG LIDDLE, a man of the Nights Watch,
MORGAN LIDDLE, his second son, called MIDDLE LIDDLE,
RICKARD LIDDLE, his third son, called LITTLE LIDDLE,
TORGHEN FLINT, of the First Flints, called THE FLINT, or OLD FLINT,
BLACK DONNEL FLINT, his son and heir,
ARTOS FLINT, his second son, half-brother to Black Donnel.

The Stark arms show a grey direwolf racing across an ice-white field. The Stark words are Winter
Is Coming.
HOUSE TULLY
Lord Edmyn Tully of Riverrun was one of the first of the river lords to swear fealty to Aegon the
Conqueror. King Aegon rewarded him by raising House Tully to dominion over all the lands of the
Trident. The Tully sigil is a leaping trout, silver, on a field of rippling blue and red. The Tully words are
Family, Duty, Honor.
EDMURE TULLY, Lord of Riverrun, taken captive at his wedding and held prisoner by the Freys,
his bride, LADY ROSLIN of House Frey, now with child,
his sister, {LADY CATELYN STARK}, widow of Lord Eddard Stark of Winterfell, slain at the Red
Wedding,
his sister, {LADY LYSA ARRYN}, widow of Lord Jon Arryn of the Vale, pushed to her death from
the Eyrie,
his uncle, SER BRYNDEN TULLY, called THE BLACKFISH, lately castellan of Riverrun, now an
outlaw
his household at Riverrun:
MAESTER VYMAN, counselor, healer, and tutor,
SER DESMOND GRELL, master-at-arms,

SER ROBIN RYGER, captain of the guard,
LONG LEW, ELWOOD, DELP, guardsmen,
UTHERYDES WAYN, steward of Riverrun,
his bannermen, the Lords of the Trident:
TYTOS BLACKWOOD, Lord of Raventree Hall,
BRYNDEN, his eldest son and heir,
{LUCAS}, his second son, slain at the Red Wedding,
HOSTER, his third son, a bookish boy,
EDMUND and ALYN, his younger sons,
BETHANY, his daughter, a girl of eight,
{ROBERT}, his youngest son, died of loose bowels,
JONOS BRACKEN, Lord of the Stone Hedge,

BARBARA, JAYNE, CATELYN, BESS, ALYSANNE, his five daughters,
HILDY, a camp follower,
JASON MALLISTER, Lord of Seagard, a prisoner in his own castle,
PATREK, his son, imprisoned with his father,
SER DENYS MALLISTER, Lord Jasons uncle, a man of the Nights Watch,
CLEMENT PIPER, Lord of Pinkmaiden Castle,
his son and heir, SER MARQ PIPER, taken captive at the Red Wedding,
KARYL VANCE, Lord of Wayfarers Rest,
NORBERT VANCE, the blind Lord of Atranta,
THEOMAR SMALLWOOD, Lord of Acorn Hall,
WILLIAM MOOTON, Lord of Maidenpool,
ELEANOR, his daughter and heir, thirteen, m. Dickon Tarly of Horn Hill,

SHELLA WHENT, dispossessed Lady of Harrenhal,
SER HALMON PAEGE,
LORD LYMOND GOODBROOK.
HOUSE TYRELL
The Tyrells rose to power as stewards to the Kings of the Reach, though they claim descent from
Garth Greenhand, gardener king of the First Men. When the last king of House Gardener was slain on
the Field of Fire, his steward, Harlen Tyrell, surrendered Highgarden to Aegon the Conqueror. Aegon
granted him the castle and dominion over the Reach. Mace Tyrell declared his support for Renly
Baratheon at the onset of the War of the Five Kings, and gave him the hand of his daughter Margaery.
Upon Renlys death, High-garden made alliance with House Lannister, and Margaery was betrothed to
King Joffrey.
MACE TYRELL, Lord of Highgarden, Warden of the South, Defender of the Marches, and High
Marshal of the Reach,
his wife, LADY ALERIE, of House Hightower of Oldtown,
their children:
WILLAS, their eldest son, heir to Highgarden,
SER GARLAN, called THE GALLANT, their second son, newly raised to Lord of Brightwater,
Garlans wife, LADY LEONETTE of House Fossoway,

SER LORAS, the Knight of Flowers, their youngest son, a Sworn Brother of the Kingsguard,
wounded on Dragonstone
MARGAERY, their daughter, twice wed and twice widowed,
Margaerys companions and ladies-in-waiting:
her cousins, MEGGA, ALLA, and ELINOR TYRELL,
Elinors betrothed, ALYN AMBROSE, squire,
LADY ALYSANNE BULWER, LADY ALYCE GRACE-FORD, LADY TAENA MERRYWEATHER,
MEREDYTH CRANE called MERRY, SEPTA NYSTERICA, her companions,
his widowed mother, LADY OLENNA of House Redwyne, called THE QUEEN OF THORNS,
his sisters:
LADY MINA, m. Paxter Redwyne, Lord of the Arbor,
her son, SER HORAS REDWYNE, called HORROR,
her son, SER HOBBER REDWYNE, called SLOBBER,
her daughter, DESMERA REDWYNE, sixteen,

LADY JANNA, wed to Ser Jon Fossoway,
his uncles:
his uncle, GARTH TYRELL, called THE GROSS, Lord Seneschal of Highgarden,
Garths bastard sons, GARSE and GARRETT FLOWERS,
his uncle, SER MORYN TYRELL, Lord Commander of the City Watch of Oldtown,
his uncle, MAESTER GORMON, serving at the Citadel,
Maces household at Highgarden:
MAESTER LOMYS, counselor, healer, and tutor,
IGON VYRWEL, captain of the guard,
SER VORTIMER CRANE, master-at-arms,
BUTTERBUMPS, fool and jester, hugely fat,

his bannermen, the Lords of the Reach:
RANDYLL TARLY, Lord of Horn Hill, commanding King Tommens army on the Trident,
PAXTER REDWYNE, Lord of the Arbor,
SER HORAS and SER HOBBER, his twin sons,
Lord Paxters healer, MAESTER BALLABAR,
ARWYN OAKHEART, Lady of Old Oak,
MATHIS ROWAN, Lord of Goldengrove
LEYTON HIGHTOWER, Voice of Oldtown, Lord of the Port,
HUMFREY HEWETT, Lord of Oakenshield,
FALIA FLOWERS, his bastard daughter,
OSBERT SERRY, Lord of Southshield,
GUTHOR GRIMM, Lord of Greyshield,

MORIBALD CHESTER, Lord of Greenshield,
ORTON MERRYWEATHER, Lord of Longtable,
LADY TAENA, his wife, a woman of Myr,
RUSSELL, her son, a boy of six,
LORD ARTHUR AMBROSE,
LORENT CASWELL, Lord of Bitterbridge,
his knights and sworn swords:
SER JON FOSSOWAY, of the green-apple Fossoways,
SER TANTON FOSSOWAY, of the red-apple Fossoways.
The Tyrell sigil is a golden rose on a grass-green field. Their words are Growing Strong.
THE SWORN BROTHERS OF THE NIGHTS WATCH
JON SNOW, the Bastard of Winterfell, nine-hundred-and-ninety-eighth Lord Commander of the
Nights Watch,

GHOST, his white direwolf,
his steward, EDDISON TOLLETT, called DOLOROUS EDD,
at Castle Black
MAESTER AEMON (TARGARYEN), healer and counselor, a blind man, one hundred and two
years old,
Aemons steward, CLYDAS,
Aemons steward, SAMWELL TARLY, fat and bookish,
BOWEN MARSH, Lord Steward,
 THREE-FINGER HOBB, steward and chief cook,
{DONAL NOYE}, one-armed armorer and smith, slain at the gate by Mag the Mighty
OWEN called THE OAF, TIM TANGLETONGUE, MULLY, CUGEN, DONNEL HILL called SWEET
DONNEL, LEFT HAND LEW, JEREN, TY, DANNEL, WICK WHITTLESTICK, stewards,
OTHELL YARWYCK, First Builder,

SPARE BOOT, HALDER, ALBETT, KEGS, ALF OF RUNNYMUDD, builders,
SEPTON CELLADOR, a drunken devout,
BLACK JACK BULWER, First Ranger,
DYWEN, KEDGE WHITEYE, BEDWYCK called GIANT, MATTHAR, GARTH GREYFEATHER, ULMER
OF THE KINGSWOOD, ELRON, GARRETT GREEN-SPEAR, FULK THE FLEA, PYPAR called PYP, GRENN called
AUROCHS, BERNARR called BLACK BERNARR, TIM STONE, RORY, BEARDED BEN, TOM BARLEY-CORN,
GOADY BIG LIDDLE, LUKE OF LONGTOWN, HAIRY HAL, rangers
LEATHERS, a wildling turned crow,
SER ALLISER THORNE, former master-at-arms,
LORD JANOS SLYNT, former commander of the City Watch of Kings Landing, briefly Lord of
Harrenhal,
IRON EMMETT, formerly of Eastwatch, master-at-arms,
HARETH called HORSE, the twins ARRON and EM-RICK, SATIN, HOP-ROBIN, recruits in training,
at the Shadow Tower
SER DENYS MALLISTER, commander,

his steward and squire, WALLACE MASSEY,
MAESTER MULLIN, healer and counselor,
{QHORIN HALFHAND, SQUIRE DALBRIDGE, EG GEN}, rangers, slain beyond the Wall,
STONESNAKE, a ranger, lost afoot in Skirling Pass,
at Eastwatch-by-the-Sea
COTTER PYKE, a bastard of the Iron Islands, commander,
MAESTER HARMUNE, healer and counselor,
OLD TATTERSALT, captain of the Blackbird,
SER GLENDON HEWETT, master-at-arms,
SER MAYNARD HOLT, captain of the Talon,
RUSS BARLEYCORN, captain of the Storm Crow.

THE WILDLINGS, OR THE FREE FOLK
MANCE RAYDER, King-Beyond-the-Wall, a captive at Castle Black,
his wife, {DALLA}, died in childbirth,
their newborn son, born in battle, as yet unnamed,
VAL, Dallas younger sister, the wildling princess, a captive at Castle Black,
{JARL}, Vals lover, killed in a fall,
his captains, chiefs, and raiders:
THE LORD OF BONES, mocked as RATTLESHIRT, a raider and leader of a war band, captive at
Castle Black,
{YGRITTE}, a young spearwife, Jon Snows lover, killed during the attack on Castle Black,
RYK, called LONGSPEAR, a member of his band,
RAGWYLE, LENYL, members of his band,
TORMUND, Mead-King of Ruddy Hall, called GIANTS-BANE, TALL-TALKER, HORN-BLOWER, and
BREAKER OF ICE, also THUNDERFIST, HUSBAND TO BEARS, SPEAKER TO GODS, and FATHER OF HOSTS,
Tormunds sons, TOREGG THE TALL, TORWYRD THE TAME, DORMUND, and DRYN, his
daughter MUNDA,

THE WEEPER, called THE WEEPING MAN, a notorious raider and leader of a war band,
{HARMA, called DOGSHEAD}, slain beneath the Wall,
HALLECK, her brother,
{STYR}, Magnar of Thenn, slain attacking Castle Black,
SIGORN, Styrs son, new Magnar of Thenn,
VARAMYR called SIXSKINS, a skinchanger and warg, called LUMP as a boy,
ONE EYE, SLY, STALKER, his wolves,
his brother, {BUMP}, killed by a dog,
his foster father, {HAGGON}, a warg and hunter,
THISTLE, a spearwife, hard and homely,
{BRIAR, GRISELLA}. skinchangers, long dead,
BORROQ, called THE BOAR, a skinchanger, much feared,
GERRICK KINGSBLOOD, of the blood of Raymun Red-beard,

his three daughters,
SOREN SHIELDBREAKER, a famed warrior,
MORNA WHITE MASK, the warrior witch, a raider,
YGON OLDFATHER, a clan chief with eighteen wives,
THE GREAT WALRUS, leader on the Frozen Shore,
MOTHER MOLE, a woods witch, given to prophecy,
BROGG, GAVIN THE TRADER, HARLE THE HUNTSMAN, HARLE THE HANDSOME, HOWD
WANDERER, BLIND DOSS, KYLEG OF THE WOODEN EAR, DEVYN SEALSKINNER, chiefs and leaders
amongst the free folk,
{ORELL, called ORELL THE EAGLE}, a skinchanger slain by Jon Snow in the Skirling Pass,
{MAG MAR TUN DOH WEG, called MAG THE MIGHTY}, a giant, slain by Donal Noye at the gate
of Castle Black,
WUN WEG WUN DAR WUN, called WUN WUN, a giant,
ROWAN, HOLLY, SQUIRREL, WILLOW WITCH-EYE, FRENYA, MYRTLE, spearwives, captive at the
Wall.

BEYOND THE WALL
in the Haunted Forest
BRANDON STARK, called BRAN, Prince of Winterfell and heir to the North, a crippled boy of
nine,
his companions and protectors:
MEERA REED, a maid of sixteen, daughter of Lord How-land Reed of Greywater Watch,
JOJEN REED, her brother, thirteen, cursed with greensight,
HODOR, a simple lad, seven feet tall,
his guide, COLDHANDS, clad in black, once perhaps a man of the Nights Watch, now a
mystery,
at Crasters Keep
the betrayers, once men of the Nights Watch:
DIRK, who murdered Craster,

OLLO LOPHAND, who slew the Old Bear, Jeor Mormont,
GARTH OF GREENAWAY, MAWNEY, GRUBBS, ALAN OF ROSBY, former rangers
CLUBFOOT KARL, ORPHAN OSS, MUTTERING BILL, former stewards,
in the caverns beneath a hollow hill
THE THREE-EYED CROW, also called THE LAST GREEN-SEER, sorcerer and dreamwalker, once a
man of the Nights Watch named BRYNDEN, now more tree than man,
the children of the forest, those who sing the song of earth, last of their dying race:
LEAF, ASH, SCALES, BLACK KNIFE, SNOWYLOCKS, COALS.
ESSOS BEYOND THE NARROW SEA
IN BRAAVOS
FERREGO ANTARYON, Sealord of Braavos, sickly and failing,
QARRO VOLENTIN, First Sword of Braavos, his protector,
BELLEGERE OTHERYS called THE BLACK PEARL, a courtesan descended from the pirate queen
of the same name,

THE VEILED LADY, THE MERLING QUEEN, THE MOON-SHADOW, THE DAUGHTER OF THE DUSK,
THE NIGHTINGALE, THE POETESS, famous courtesans,
THE KINDLY MAN and THE WAIF, servants of the Many-Faced
God at the House of Black and White,
UMMA, the temple cook,
THE HANDSOME MAN, THE FAT FELLOW, THE LORDLING, THE STERN FACE, THE SQUINTER,
and THE STARVED MAN, secret servants of Him of Many Faces,
ARYA of House Stark, a novice in service at the House of Black and White, also known as ARRY,
NAN, WEASEL, SQUAB, SALTY, and CAT OF THE CANALS,
BRUSCO, a fishmonger,
his daughters, TALEA and BREA,
MERALYN, called MERRY, proprietor of the Happy Port, a brothel near the Ragmans Harbor,
THE SAILORS WIFE, a whore at the Happy Port,
LANNA, her daughter, a young whore,

RED ROGGO, GYLORO DOTHARE, GYLENO DOTHARE, a scribbler called QUILL, COSSOMO THE
CONJURER, patrons of the Happy Port,
TAGGANARO, a dockside cutpurse and thief,
CASSO, KING OF THE SEALS, his trained seal,
SVRONE, a dockside whore of a murderous bent,
THE DRUNKEN DAUGHTER, a whore of uncertain temper.
IN OLD VOLANTIS
the reigning triarchs:
MALAQUO MAEGYR, Triarch of Volantis, a tiger,
DONIPHOS PAENYMION, Triarch of Volantis, an elephant,
NYESSOS VHASSAR, Triarch of Volantis, an elephant,
people of Volantis:

BENERRO, High Priest of Rhllor, the Lord of Light,
his right hand, MOQORRO, a priest of Rhllor,
THE WIDOW OF THE WATERFRONT, a wealthy freed-woman of the city, also called
VOGARROS WHORE,
her fierce protectors, THE WIDOWS SONS,
PENNY, a dwarf girl and mummer,
her pig, PRETTY PIG,
her dog, CRUNCH,
{GROAT}, brother to Penny, a dwarf mummer, murdered and beheaded,
ALIOS QHAEDAR, a candidate for triarch,
PARQUELLO VAELAROS, a candidate for triarch,
BELICHO STAEGONE, a candidate for triarch,
GRAZDAN MO ERAZ, an envoy from Yunkai.

ON SLAVERS BAY
in Yunkai, the Yellow City:
YURKHAZ ZO YUNZAK, Supreme Commander of the Armies and Allies of Yunkai, a slaver and
aged noble of impeccable birth,
YEZZAN ZO QAGGAZ, mocked as the YELLOW WHALE, monstrously obese, sickly, hugely rich,
NURSE, his slave overseer,
SWEETS, a hermaphrodite slave, his treasure,
SCAR, a serjeant and slave soldier,
MORGO, a slave soldier,
MORGHAZ ZO ZHERZYN, a nobleman oft in his cups, mocked as THE DRUNKEN CONQUEROR,
GORZHAK ZO ERAZ, a nobleman and slaver, mocked as PUDDING FACE,
FAEZHAR ZO FAEZ, a nobleman and slaver, known as THE RABBIT,
GHAZDOR ZO AHLAQ, a nobleman and slaver, mocked as LORD WOBBLECHEEKS,
PAEZHAR ZO MYRAQ, a nobleman of small stature, mocked as THE LITTLE PIGEON,

CHEZDHAR ZO RHAEZN, MAEZON ZO RHAEZN, GRAZDHAN ZO RHAEZN, noblemen and
brothers, mocked as THE CLANKER LORDS,
THE CHARIOTEER, THE BEASTMASTER, THE PERFUMED HERO, noblemen and slavers,
in Astapor, the Red City:
CLEON THE GREAT, called THE BUTCHER KING,
CLEON II, his successor, king for eight days,
KING CUTTHROAT, a barber, slit the throat of Cleon II to steal his crown,
QUEEN WHORE, concubine to King Cleon II, claimed the throne after his murder.
THE QUEEN ACROSS THE WATER
DAENERYS TARGARYEN, the First of Her Name, Queen of Meereen, Queen of the Andals and the
Rhoynar and the First Men, Lord of the Seven Kingdoms, Protector of the Realm, Khaleesi of the Great
Grass Sea, called DAENERYS STORMBORN, the UNBURNT, MOTHER OF DRAGONS,
her dragons, DROGON, VISERION, RHAEGAL,
her brother, {RHAEGAR}, Prince of Dragonstone, slain by Robert Baratheon on the Trident,
Rhaegars daughter, {RHAENYS}, murdered during the Sack of Kings Landing,

Rhaegars son, {AEGON}, a babe in arms, murdered during the Sack of Kings Landing,
her brother {VISERYS}, the Third of His Name, called THE BEGGAR KING, crowned with molten
gold,
her lord husband, {DROGO}, a khal of the Dothraki, died of a wound gone bad,
her stillborn son by Drogo, {RHAEGO}, slain in the womb by the maegi Mirri Maz Duur,
her protectors:
SER BARRISTAN SELMY, called BARRISTAN THE BOLD, Lord Commander of the Queensguard,
his lads, squires training for knighthood:
TUMCO LHO, of the Basilisk Isles,
LARRAQ, called THE LASH, of Meereen,
THE RED LAMB, a Lhazarene freedman,
the BOYS, three Ghiscari brothers,

STRONG BELWAS, eunuch and former fighting slave,
her Dothraki bloodriders:
JHOGO, the whip, blood of her blood,
AGGO, the bow, blood of her blood,
RAKHARO, the arakh, blood of her blood,
her captains a nd commanders:
DAARIO NAHARIS, a flamboyant Tyroshi sellsword, captain of the Stormcrows, a free
company,
BEN PLUMM, called BROWN BEN, a mongrel sellsword, captain of the Second Sons, a free
company.
GREY WORM, a eunuch, commander of the Unsullied, a company of eunuch infantry,
HERO, an Unsullied captain, second-in-command,
STALWART SHIELD, an Unsullied spearman,

MOLLONO YOS DOB, commander of the Stalwart Shields, a company of freedmen,
SYMON STRIPEBACK, commander of FREE BROTHERS, a company of freedmen,
MARSELEN, commander of the MOTHERS MEN, a company of freedman, a eunuch, brother
to Missandei,
GROLEO of Pentos, formerly captain of the great cog Saduleon, now an admiral without a
fleet,
ROMMO, a jaqqa rhan of the Dothraki,
her Meereenese court:
REZNAK MO REZNAK, her seneschal, bald and unctuous,
SKAHAZ MO KANDAQ, called THE SHAVEPATE, shaven-headed commander of the Brazen
Beasts, her city watch,
her handmaids and servants:
IRRI and JHIQUI, young women of the Dothraki,

MISSANDEI, a Naathi scribe and translator,
GRAZDAR, QEZZA, MEZZARA, KEZMYA, AZZAK, BHAKAZ, MIKLAZ, DHAZZAR, DRAQAZ,
JHEZANE, children of the pyramids of Meereens, her cupbearers and pages,
people of Meereen, highborn and common:
GALAZZA GALARE, the Green Grace, high priestess at the Temple of the Graces,
GRAZDAM ZO GALARE, her cousin, a nobleman,
HIZDAHR ZO LORAQ, a wealthy Meereenese nobleman, of ancient lineage,
MARGHAZ ZO LORAQ, his cousin,
RYLONA RHEE, freedwoman and harpist,
{HAZZEA}, a farmers daughter, four years of age,
GOGHOR THE GIANT, KHRAZZ, BELAQUO BONE-BREAKER, CAMARRON OF THE COUNT,
FEARLESS ITHOKE, THE SPOTTED CAT, BARSENA BLACKHAIR, STEELSKIN, pit fighters and freed slaves,

her uncertain allies, false friends, and known enemies:
SER JORAH MORMONT, formerly Lord of Bear Island,
{MIRRI MAZ DUUR}, godswife and maegi, a servant of the Great Shepherd of Lhazar,
XARO XHOAN DAXOS, a merchant prince of Qarth,
QUAITHE, a masked shadowbinder from Asshai,
ILLYRIO MOPATIS, a magister of the Free City of Pentos, who brokered her marriage to Khal
Drogo,
CLEON THE GREAT, butcher king of Astapor.
the Queens Suitors
on Slavers Bay:
DAARIO NAHARIS, late of Tyrosh, a sellsword and captain of the Stormcrows,
HIZDAHR ZO LORAQ, a wealthy Meereenese nobleman,
SKAHAZ MO KANDAQ, called THE SHAVEPATE, a lesser nobleman of Meereen,

CLEON THE GREAT, Butcher King of Astapor,
in Volantis:
PRINCE QUENTYN MARTELL, eldest son of Doran Martell, Lord of Sunspear and Prince of
Dorne,
his sworn shields and companions:
{SER CLETUS YRONWOOD}, heir to Yronwood, slain by corsairs,
SER ARCHIBALD YRONWOOD, cousin to Cletus, called THE BIG MAN,
SER GERRIS DRINKWATER,
{SER WILLAM WELLS}, slain by corsairs
{MAESTER KEDRY}, slain by corsairs,
on the Rhoyne:

YOUNG GRIFF, a blue-haired lad of eighteen years,
his foster father, GRIFF, a sellsword late of the Golden Company,
his companion, teachers, and protectors:
SER ROLLY DUCKFIELD, called DUCK, a knight,
SEPTA LEMORE, a woman of the Faith,
HALDON, called THE HALFMAESTER, his tutor,
YANDRY, master and captain of the Shy Maid,
YSILLA, his wife,
at sea:
VICTARION GREYJOY, Lord Captain of the Iron Fleet, called THE IRON CAPTAIN,
his bedwarmer, a dusky woman without a tongue, a gift from Euron Crows Eye,
his healer, MAESTER KERWIN, late of Greenshield, a gift from Euron Crows Eye,

his crew on the Iron Victory:
WULFE ONE-EAR, RAGNOR PYKE, LONGWATER PYKE, TOM TIDEWOOD, BURTON HUMBLE,
QUELLON HUMBLE, STEFFAR STAMMERER
his captains:
RODRIK SPARR, called THE VOLE, captain of Grief,
RED RALF STONEHOUSE, captain of Red Jester,
MANFRYD MERLYN, captain of Kite,
RALF THE LIMPER, captain of Lord Quellon,
TOM CODD, called BLOODLESS TOM, captain of the Lamentation,
DAEGON SHEPHERD, called THE BLACK SHEPHERD, captain of the Dagger.
The Targaryens are the blood of the dragon, descended from the high lords of the ancient
Freehold of Valyria, their heritage marked by lilac, indigo, and violet eyes and hair of silver-gold. To
preserve their blood and keep it pure, House Targaryen has oft wed brother to sister, cousin to cousin,
uncle to niece. The founder of the dynasty, Aegon the Conqueror, took both his sisters to wife and
fathered sons on each. The Targaryen banner is a three-headed dragon, red on black, the three heads
representing Aegon and his sisters. The Targaryen words are Fire and Blood.

THE SELLSWORDS MEN AND WOMEN OF THE FREE COMPANIES
THE GOLDEN COMPANY, ten thousand strong, of uncertain loyalty:
HOMELESS HARRY STRICKLAND, captain-general,
WATKYN, his squire and cupbearer,
{SER MYLES TOYNE, called BLACKHEART}, four years dead, the previous captain-general,
BLACK BALAQ, a white-haired Summer Islander, commander of the company archers,
LYSONO MAAR, a sellsword late of the Free City of Lys, company spymaster,
GORYS EDORYEN, a sellsword late of the Free City of Volantis, company paymaster,
SER FRANKLYN FLOWERS, the Bastard of Cider Hall, a sells-word from the Reach,
SER MARQ MANDRAKE, an exile escaped from slavery, scarred by pox,
SER LASWELL PEAKE, an exile lord,
his brothers, TORMAN and PYKEWOOD,
SER TRISTAN RIVERS, bastard, outlaw, exile,

CASPOR HILL, HUMFREY STONE, MALO JAYN, DICK COLE, WILL COLE, LORIMAS MUDD, JON
LOTHSTON, LYMOND PEASE, SER BRENDEL BYRNE, DUNCAN STRONG, DENYS STRONG, CHAINS, YOUNG
JOHN MUDD, serjeants of the company,
{SER AEGOR RIVERS, called BITTERSTEEL}, a bastard son of King Aegon IV Targaryen, founder
of the company},
{MAELYS I BLACKFYRE, called MAELYS THE MONSTROUS}, captain-general of the company,
pretender to the Iron Throne of Westeros, member of the Band of Nine, slain during the War of the
Ninepenny Kings,
THE WINDBLOWN, two thousand horse and foot, sworn to Yunkai,
THE TATTERED PRINCE, a former nobleman of the Free City of Pentos, captain and founder,
CAGGO, called CORPSEKILLER, his right hand,
DENZO DHAN, the warrior bard, his left hand,
HUGH HUNGERFORD, serjeant, former company paymaster, fined three fingers for stealing,
SER ORSON STONE, SER LUCIFER LONG, WILL OF THE WOODS, DICK STRAW, GINJER JACK,
Westerosi sellswords,
PRETTY MERIS, the company torturer,

BOOKS, a Volantene swordsman and notorious reader,
BEANS, a crossbowman, late of Myr,
OLD BILL BONE, a weathered Summer Islander,
MYRIO MYRAKIS, a sellsword late of Pentos,
THE COMPANY OF THE CAT, three thousand strong, sworn to Yunkai,
BLOODBEARD, captain and commander,
THE LONG LANCES, eight hundred horse-riders, sworn to Yunkai,
GYLO RHEGAN, captain and commander,
THE SECOND SONS, five hundred horse-riders, sworn to Queen Daenerys,
BROWN BEN PLUMM, captain and commander,

KASPORIO, called KASPORIO THE CUNNING, a bravo, second-in-command,
TYBERO ISTARION, called INKPOTS, company paymaster,
HAMMER, a drunken blacksmith and armorer,
his apprentice, called NAIL,
SNATCH, a serjeant, one-handed,
KEM, a young sellsword, from Flea Bottom,
BOKKOKO, an axeman of formidable repute,
UHLAN, a serjeant of the company,
THE STORMCROWS, five hundred horse-riders, sworn to Queen Daenerys,
DAAERIO NAHARIS, captain and commander,
THE WIDOWER, his second-in-command,

JOKIN, commander of the company archers.
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
The last one was a bitch. This one was three bitches and a bastard. Once again, my thanks to my
long-suffering editors and publishers: to Jane Johnson and Joy Chamberlain at Voyager, and Scott
Shannon, Nita Taublib, and Anne Groell from Bantam. Their understanding, good humor, and sage
advice helped through the tough bits, and I will never cease to be grateful for their patience.
Thanks as well to my equally patient and endlessly supportive agents, Chris Lotts, Vince
Gerardis, the fabulous Kay McCauley, and the late Ralph Vicinanza. Ralph, I wish you were here to share
this day.
And thanks to Stephen Boucher, the wandering Aussie who helps keep my computer greased
and humming whenever he drops by Santa Fe for a breakfast burrito (Xmas) and a side of jalapeo
bacon.
Back here on the home front, thanks are also due to my dear friends Melinda Snodgrass and
Daniel Abraham for their encouragement and support, to my webmaster Pati Nagle for maintaining my
corner of the Internet, and to the amazing Raya Golden for the meals, the art, the unfailing good cheer
that helped to brighten even the darkest days around Terrapin Station. Even if she did try to steal my
cat.
As long as it has taken me to dance this dance, it would surely have taken twice as long without
the assistance of my faithful (and acerbic) minion and sometime traveling companion Ty Franck, who
tends to my computer when Stephens not around, keeps the ravening virtual mobs from my virtual
doorstep, runs my errands, does my filing, makes the coffee, walks the walk, and charges ten thousand
dollars to change a light bulball while writing his own kick-ass books on Wednesdays.
Last, but far from my least, all my love and gratitude to my wife, Parris, who has danced every
step of this beside me. Love ya, Phipps.
George R. R. Martin
May 13, 2011
About the Author

GEORGE R. R. MARTIN sold his first story in 1971 and has been writing professionally every
since. He has written fantasy, horror, and science fiction, and for his sins spent ten years in Hollywood as
a writer/producer, working on The Twilight Zone, Beauty and the Beast, and various feature films and
television pilots that were never made. In the mid 90s he returned to prose, his first love, and began
work on his epic fantasy series A Song of Ice and Fire. He has been in the Seven Kingdoms ever since.
Whenever hes allowed to leave, he returns to Santa Fe, New Mexico, where he lives with his wife Parris
and their four cats.
www.georgerrmartin.com
About the Type
This book was set in Electra, a typeface designed for Linotype by W. A. Dwiggins, the renowned
type designer (18801956). Electra is a fluid typeface, avoiding the contrasts of thick and thin strokes
that are prevalent in most modern typefaces.
By George R. R. Martin
A SONG OF ICE AND FIRE
Book One: A Game of Thrones
Book Two: A Clash of Kings
Book Three, part one: A Storm of Swords: Steel and Snow
Book Three, part two: A Storm of Swords: Blood and Gold
Book Four: A Feast for Crows
Book Five: A Dance with Dragons
Fevre Dream
The Armageddon Rag
Tuf Voyaging
Dying of the Light
Sandkings

Portraits of His Children
A Song for Lya
Songs of Stars and Shadows
Windhaven (with Lisa Tuttle)
Nightflyers
Copyright
1
Copyright  George R.R. Martin 2011
George R.R. Martin asserts the moral right to be identified as the author of this work
A catalogue record for this book is available from the British Library
ISBN: 978-0-00-224739-9
EPub Edition  June 2011 ISBN: 9780007442454
This novel is entirely a work of fiction. The names, characters and incidents portrayed in it are
the work of the authors imagination. Any resemblance to actual persons, living or dead, events or
localities is entirely coincidental.
All rights reserved under International and Pan-American Copyright Conventions. By payment of
the required fees, you have been granted the nonexclusive, nontransferable right to access and read the

text of this e-book on-screen. No part of this text may be reproduced, transmitted, downloaded,
decompiled, reverse-engineered, or stored in or introduced into any information storage and retrieval
system, in any form or by any means, whether electronic or mechanical, now known or hereinafter
invented, without the express written permission of HarperCollins e-books.
About the Publisher
Australia
HarperCollins Publishers (Australia) Pty. Ltd.
25 Ryde Road (P.O. Box 321)
Pymble, NSW 2073, Australia
www.harpercollins.com.au/ebooks
Canada
HarperCollins Canada
2 Bloor Street East - 20th Floor
Toronto, ON, M4W, 1A8, Canada
http://www.harpercollins.ca

New Zealand
HarperCollins Publishers (New Zealand) Limited
P.O. Box 1
Auckland, New Zealand
http://www.harpercollins.co.nz
United Kingdom
HarperCollins Publishers Ltd.
77-85 Fulham Palace Road
London, W6 8JB, UK
http://www.harpercollins.co.uk
United States
HarperCollins Publishers Inc.
10 East 53rd Street

New York, NY 10022
http://www.harpercollins.com





